《Ex-wife of A Billionaire》 Chapter 1 At night, the majestic heavy rain washed everything in the world like dumping. The lightning that slipped from time to time mixed with thunder was deafening, enveloping the whole world in a treacherous atmosphere. There was no light in the dark room, and the heavy curtains blocked the light of the meager night lights outside, without any reflection in the presidential suite. On the luxurious kingsize big bed, two people with neck and head intertwined are doing the most primitive sports In this night, it became the biggest turning point in Jian Mo''s life... So that in the end, she used too much to commemorate all this. When she woke up after the medicine, Jane Mo felt as if she had been crushed. As long as she moved, she seemed to fall apart. Hands, slowly clenched, teeth biting lips. Suddenly, the nose is sour and uncontrollable, and the fundus of the eyes is already wet. Because of panic and fear, Jane Mo couldn''t care to see who the man sleeping with her back to her was. She bit her teeth out of bed, picked up the clothes on the ground one by one, put them on... And then left in a hurry. With a thunderclap, Jian Mo walked in Los Angeles under the heavy rain like she lost her soul, but for a moment, she was already soaked. Tears have already flooded at the moment when they came out It is said that crying is most suitable when it rains. As long as you stand in the rain, no one knows your cowardice. Jian Mo smiled and cried... She looked extraordinarily seeping under the dim yellow street lamp. I don''t know how I walked back. Looking at the light at home, Jane was distracted for a moment It was almost early morning when I left Sofia Hotel. After walking for so long, why was the light still on at home? Jane Mo didn''t dare to go in, so she stood at the door and looked at the house... The astringent pain in her heart instantly crushed the body crushed by the man. The door was suddenly opened. Even if Jane Mo wanted to hide, it was too late. "Miss?" The one who came out was Mrs. Wang, who was a maid in Jane''s house. When she saw her, she was stunned at first, and then hurried forward, "Miss, where have you been? I can''t get through to you all night..." her voice was urgent, "something''s wrong!" Jane Mo''s heart "cluttered" and gently fanned her lower eyelids, some at a loss? Mrs. Wang didn''t notice Jane Mo''s embarrassment. She just thought she didn''t bring an umbrella. "Mr. fell off the building at the construction site... He is being rescued in the hospital. The young master''s phone can''t get through, and yours can''t get through... My wife is alone in the hospital, and her heart disease has relapsed again." What Wang Ma said later, Jane Mo didn''t hear clearly. She just heard the word "falling from a building", and her mind was "buzzing" for a moment. It was empty! Seeing that Jian Mo was scared silly and could not take care of anything else, Mrs Wang took her hand and walked to the car on the roadside... Her thoughts didn''t return until Jian Mo was stuffed into the car. Regardless of her loss of life, Jane Mo looked at Wang Ma with red eyes and trembling: "Wang ma... You, you..." because of fear, she couldn''t even say a complete character clearly. She swallowed and gasped, "what did you just say?" The driver is Aunt Wang''s husband uncle Hai. He looked at Jian Mo in the rearview mirror and drove carefully to the hospital with a heavy complexion. Mrs. Wang''s face became more heavy and said with a deep sigh, "there was an accident on the construction site. It was said that Mr. Wang accidentally fell off a building... He was being rescued. My wife rushed to the hospital and heard that the situation was not optimistic, so..." Mrs. Wang didn''t say anything. Jane Mo closed her eyes... Her mother had a heart attack. Under such circumstances, she must not be able to bear it. When the car arrived at the hospital, Jane Zhanfeng and Su mo were both rescuing. The empty corridor is particularly treacherous in the rainy night, as if it is full of the breath of death. Jane Mo stood wet at the door of the operating room, looking at the "operation" lamp with no expression Uncle Hai came forward and took off his coat and put it on Jian Mo, "Miss, sir and wife are so nice that they will be fine." "Where''s Jane truss?" Jane Mo didn''t move her eyes, but asked coldly. Uncle Hai sighed softly, and his face was helpless and heavy: "the young master didn''t come back... The phone couldn''t get through." Jane Mo''s mouth slipped a sneer, and her eyes overflowed with hatred. In an instant, something burst cold in the heart, and her eyes were red. She bit her teeth... Forcibly forced the overflow tears back. Why did she believe that Jane was going to give her the money tonight? Knowing that a gambler was hopeless... She still believed it, and even lost her precious first time framed by him. Jane Mo''s hand is getting tighter and tighter. It seems that as long as she uses less strength, she can''t support it Time seemed to have never been so slow. Jian Mo stood like this and waited... Until the rain stopped outside and the sky gradually lit up. Although the waiting is long, but there is no news, at least there is hope, isn''t it? However, at the moment of dawn, Jane Mo felt that... The world completely abandoned her. "Sorry, we have tried our best..." Jane Mo thought she would collapse, but when the doctor said this mechanically, she was unusually quiet, "doctor, where''s my mother?" "Mrs. Jane''s condition is under control for the time being, but..." the doctor looked at the embarrassed girl in front of him. "It''s okay, I can bear it." Jane Mo spoke quietly, but the tension in her eyes had betrayed her. The doctor sighed lightly: "Mrs. Jane''s heart suffered too much, and her heart stopped beating several times during rescue... Although it has been controlled, she may not be able to wake up, not necessarily." Jane Mo only felt that her legs and feet were soft, and the whole person had no strength to support... Suddenly, she was black and almost fainted. "Miss, miss..." Uncle Hai and Ma Wang hurried to hold Jian Mo, and their tired faces were all worried. Jane Mo closed her eyes and opened them steadily. Her voice became more and more hoarse and said, "I''m fine..." The eyelashes kept trembling. Jane Mo wanted to be stronger She looked at the hospital bed pushed out, her hand trembled and gently opened the covered white cloth... Looking at her father with no signs of life, she couldn''t help crying out. "Dad... Dad..." Jane Mo held Jane Zhanfeng and cried in pain. She kept shouting "Dad", but she didn''t know what to say. Wang Ma secretly wiped her tears. Uncle Hai looked at Jian Mo with a sad face "A good home, how suddenly..." Mrs. Wang has burst into tears, "what''s the matter?" The doctor looked at this scene, sighed deeply, took the death report and turned away... He saw more life and death, but every time he saw such a farewell scene, he was worried. But the doctor didn''t go far away. Suddenly, a frightened voice came from behind "Miss, miss..." The doctor turned and saw that Jian Mo was paralyzed on the ground and fainted. Chapter 2 Two years later When the sun was scorching in the afternoon, the people in the design Engineering Department of Xiangyu construction engineering company were slouching away one by one. Jian Mo sat in the conference room, holding his cheek in one hand and a drawing pencil in the other hand, drawing on the design drawing Because it was not time for the meeting and the director had not arrived yet, the first few people came together with an entertainment magazine to "chatter" and discuss. "Gu Beichen is changing women too fast. You say... Will the public be visually tired with the exposure of gossip every day?" Da Xiong held tut Tut and made a sound. Mo Xiaoya flirted with her curly hair and said leisurely, "I think you are jealous... As long as it is chenshao''s news, which newspapers and magazines are not sold out?" "That''s..." the internship design assistant came to speak to the evening, with a slightly slanted head and fantasy, "Alas, Chen Shao is really handsome... It would be nice to have a chance to see him." "Huachi, you..." Da Xiong rolled his eyes. "A man like Gu Beichen has an empty skin bag, which is not illuminated by the shadow of his home." "You''re wrong," Mo Xiaoya shook her head. "Although the emperor group is handed down by Gu''s family, it has been in chenshao''s hands for less than three years... How powerful is the expansion?!" Mo Xiaoya gave a long sigh of disappointment and said: "such a man is simply the most perfect man in a woman''s dream... Whether it''s appearance or power!" "Oh, speaking of this... I''m very curious." Xiang night stared at her round eyes. "Chen Shao officially took over the emperor group and got married within a few months, but he hasn''t seen his wife appear in front of the public in the past two years!" She said, holding her chin. "Chen Shao has been having an affair with celebrities and stars for three days. What I want to know most is... What his wife feels." Xiang Wan stared, "the most important thing is whether the legendary Mrs. Gu exists or not?" "It is also possible that the so-called ''Mrs. Gu'' was speculated by the media. In fact, there is no such person at all." Ding Dangshan, a project planner lying on the table, said. "Mrs. Gu really exists..." Xu Siyu, who hasn''t spoken for a long time, said, "one of my brothers was a reporter. He wanted to shoot the wedding with me, but the confidentiality of the family was too high, and finally nothing was photographed." "Anyway, in a word... Women who marry rich families are sad!" Mo Xiaoya said coldly, "it looks like scenery, but it''s actually humble." "So, men like us are the most reliable." Daxiong hurriedly answered and looked at Mo Xiaoya with a flattering smile. Mo Xiaoya rolled her eyes and didn''t bother to talk to her. She just looked at Jane Mo, who was not affected by them: "I said Jane, how can you focus on your work so much?" Xiang night glanced at the design drawing that Jian Mo was painting. Hippie said, "because sister Mo is diligent, there are many talents looking for her to draw the design drawing now..." Her dogleg looked at Jian Mo, "but then again, sister Mo, are you really not curious about Gu Beichen?" Jane Mo marked next to a design, "why should I be curious?" She looked innocently at the night. "People who can be seen every three or five times have no freshness." "..." when they heard this, they suddenly "bang". "Who of us didn''t see it every once in a while, but haven''t seen a real person?" He glanced at the magazine. "Hey, when can our company cooperate with the Emperor... Let''s have a close look?!" Jian Mo looked at the flower maniac in Xiang night''s eyes and said with a smile: "then?" Her beautiful and bright eyes slipped cunningly, "you have been favored by Chen Shao, and you have lived a white, rich and beautiful life since then?" With that, Jane Mo smiled and nodded to the crowd. Suddenly, there was a burst of laughter in the conference room When Xiang Wanyi heard this, he immediately shrugged and pulled his face, "sister Mo, I''m not kidding." She glanced at the corner of her mouth, "for a group as big as the emperor, if our company can cooperate, our value will rise in the future!" "On the scale of our Xiangyu, can the emperor see it?" Qiao Zirong, an old man in the design department, directly put out Xiang night''s dream, "don''t even have the qualification to submit the bidding document?!" "Maybe?" Turning his eyes to the night, "how can we say that our boss has also won foreign design awards!" Jane Mo listened to the change of their topic, and her eyes inadvertently fell on the magazine spread on the table Above, Gu Beichen is giving a recently popular jade girl star Lu Manyu messy hair, so gentle, affectionate and profound. Gu Beichen definitely has the ability to kill international stars. He has a handsome face with carved edges and corners. Under his eagle eyes, there are deep Obsidian ink pupils, high nose and thin lips Wide shoulders and narrow hips set off the perfect face without any defects. With the blessing of the emperor of God, this man, who is just 28, seems to announce how clever God''s hand is. "Di" slipped by with a light sound, and a text message from the mobile phone pulled back Jane Mo''s thoughts. She astringed her eyes, picked up her mobile phone and crossed it Mr. G: I''ll go back to lanzeyuan tonight. Jane Mo looked at the mobile phone text message and was distracted. She didn''t react until she looked at her suspiciously at night, and then quickly replied: OK, wait for you! As soon as the text message was sent, the director came in with the assistant and the engineering team. Everyone cleaned up their mood and sat down quickly "President Yu received the news," said Tang Haoyang, the director. "The emperor will build a theme leisure club in the west of the city..." He paused deliberately, glanced over the crowd and said the second half of the sentence, "the design of each floor will be handed over to different companies... There are 18 floors in total, and there is no public bidding. Therefore, this is our chance!" Everyone''s eyes suddenly stared round and looked at Tang Haoyang brightly. "Director, really?" Xiang night was the first to make a sound. Tang Haoyang nodded and looked at Jian Mo: "Jian Mo, Mr. Yu said that you will be responsible for this comparison... Xiaoya, and civic help." Jane Mo didn''t change her face, but said calmly: "there''s no problem with the design drawing, but it''s difficult to participate..." Tang Haoyang sighed, "so... Whether you can send your design drawings to the emperor depends on your ability." "This is not only Xiangyu''s opportunity, but also your opportunity... I recommend you to UCL for commercial works." Jane Mo drove her popular white modern car to lanze Park, thinking about Tang Haoyang''s words all the way It''s her dream to study architectural design at the University of London. Even if the reality doesn''t allow her to continue, she always has to give herself a chance without regret, doesn''t she? When she parked the car in front of the villa, Jane Mo was still thinking about it... She didn''t see the domineering Spyker parked there. After entering the door, Jane Mo felt that the atmosphere was wrong... Every time the man came back, the air would be filled with domineering elements. Jane Mo glanced across the sofa and landed on the small bar Looking at the man''s proud and cold tall figure, she suddenly grinned, faded her previous calm, some flattering smile, and her eyes twinkled with bright light: "ah Chen? I didn''t expect you to come back so soon... Didn''t she say at night?" Gu Beichen turned around, and the eagle''s eyes looked at the flower like simple foam with a deep smile. His thin lips slightly hooked an evil radian, "why, I''m not happy to come back early?" "How could it?" After changing her shoes, Jane Mo went up and hugged Gu Beichen''s waist, smiling more and more brightly, "are you coming back to dinner with me?" "Yes." Gu Beichen raised his hand and crossed Jian Mo''s lips with his fingers. Jane Mo let him touch her cheek, just raised her eyebrows and asked, "don''t you have to accompany the star named Lu man?" Gu Beichen looked at the flashing light at the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes, and couldn''t help but deepen the smile on the edge of his thin lips, "why, are you jealous?" Chapter 3 Jane Mo''s eyes were like silk, slightly padded her toes, and the lips painted with lip honey were sexy and attractive. She kissed Gu Beichen''s lips, smiled and said sweetly: "vinegar is too sour... It''s so hot that I only drink sour plum soup." "Oh?" Gu Beichen slightly raised his eyebrows, and his Obsidian like ink pupil was deep for a few minutes. "I like sour..." his eyes slightly glanced at the position of Jian Mo''s abdomen, "is there any?!" Jane Mo stared angrily, "do you know if I have Chen Shao?" Gu Beichen smiled. He likes this woman... He doesn''t pester him skillfully on weekdays. When he comes back, he will do his duty as a wife. He always asked her: Jane Mo, why did you agree to marry me? She said honestly and without hypocrisy: because I need money, and you don''t lack it. He needs a wife to get the shares put by his grandfather in the hands of his second uncle. A woman who is too fanciful is not suitable Obviously, Jane Mo, who said she needed money, was the best candidate. What''s more... Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s eyes, his eyes were deep, and one side of his thin lip outlined a curve of evil flattery. "Have you ever thought of giving me one?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. Jane Mo''s heart "cluttered" and secretly said: doesn''t this man know that it''s shameful to use a beautiful man? Smiling, Jane Mo blinked innocently: "at first, we only said to be your wife... If you have children, you have to increase the price." Gu Beichen smiled slightly on his thin lips, pecked and kissed at the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth for a while, and then said in a low and magnetic voice, "card, brush whatever you want... You can brush whatever you want." Jane Mo''s heart trembled uncontrollably. The man always had a way to make her confused: "if you have the ability to stay in my stomach, I have the ability to stay... But if you don''t want it at that time, it will hurt my body!" Looking at Jian Mo''s pitiful appearance, he clearly knew that the woman was pretending, but he was still happy with Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen gently pinched Jian Mo''s nose and said faintly, "elder sister is calling me to have dinner. You accompany me." As soon as Jane Mo listened, her body froze in an instant, and her eyes unconsciously overflowed with a touch of resistance... Just disappeared in an instant and recovered her heartless appearance. "OK..." Jian Mo smiled and pushed Gu Beichen away. "Then I''ll go upstairs and change my clothes." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and loosened Jian mo. Before leaving, Jian Mo kissed Gu Beichen on the cheek and turned sharply to go upstairs However, at the moment of turning around, all the disguises on her face cracked, as if she was going to be cut by something. Gu Beichen looked deeply at Jian Mo''s back disappearing into the bedroom, then took back his eyes, took a red wine cup and sipped... A strange smile gradually overflowed between his thin lips. Jane Mo soon came down, took off her ol dress, and changed into a knee length chiffon skirt with shoulder length stand collar. Her originally coiled hair was also loosely put down, and the whole person immediately became an enchanting little goblin. "Alas, I don''t want to go..." Gu Beichen suddenly hugged Jane Mo''s waist and turned around, and put her on the bar. The deep fundus of his eyes gradually overflowed the hot bath look. Jian Mo was suddenly overwhelmed by the male breath, and her heart beat uncontrollably faster Although the reason for getting married was that he needed a wife and she needed money. However, they have been married for nearly two years. They have been in bed since the first day of marriage She was grateful to marry Gu Beichen when she was in urgent need of money. At least... He didn''t dislike her. Well, in the final analysis, this is because she shows a strong desire for money... But anyway, she has been trying her best to do what a wife should do. "I don''t care..." Jane Mo drooped her eyes and drew a circle on Gu Beichen''s chest with her fingers. "But will the elder sister think it''s me who dragged you away?" Words fall, she also innocently raised her eyes and fanned her long eyelashes. Gu Beichen, can''t go, can''t go Jian Mo kept shouting in her heart, and her eyes seemed to overflow the urgency to Gu Beichen because of these shouting Such urgency falls into Gu Beichen''s eyes, that is the invitation of chiguoguo. "Goblin..." Gu Beichen leaned over and tossed his lips on Jian Mo''s lips. Then he drove in and captured all the nerves in her mouth, hooked her tongue and danced with him. However, in an instant, the two people have been caught up in the sky and thunder, and there seems to be a trend of going to the clouds and rain together at the bar "Buzzing... Buzzing..." The sound of mobile phone vibration came untimely. Seeing that Gu Beichen had polished the barrel of the gun and was ready to shoot at any time, he was abruptly interrupted. "Answer the phone first..." Jane Mo said vaguely. Gu Beichen let go of Jian Mo''s lips and looked at the person who was shy because of his kiss. His eyes were deep. He took the mobile phone on the bar, glanced at the call and picked it up and put it in his ear, "I''ll be there in half an hour... Um... OK!" After hanging up the phone, Gu Beichen conveniently put the mobile phone into his pocket, and then raised his hand to wipe off the stained lip gloss around Jian Mo''s mouth. The low voice like a cello overflowed his thin lips vaguely: "I''ll clean you up when I come back at night..." Jane Mo hasn''t slowed down yet, but as soon as Gu Beichen said so, he immediately replied: "Chen, don''t eat and drink outside. If you come back, you still have the strength to clean me up?" Gu Beichen smiled, "well, I like you to be jealous." "..." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s smile and wanted to curse. Which eye of yours saw me jealous? That''s ridicule, that''s ridicule! Misunderstood every minute, she is also drunk, okay?! Jian Mo was stuffed by Gu Beichen into his recently changed Spyker with a global limit of eight units... No matter the appearance or interior, this car only interprets two words... Luxury! To put it bluntly, that''s sultry! In line with Gu Beichen''s essence Jane Mo tries to think of something that can distract her attention... During her hidden marriage with Gu Beichen for more than a year, she can adapt to everything, but she can''t accompany him to his eldest sister Gu Ci''s house occasionally. She was afraid of meeting that person The thought of that person made Jane Mo''s heart ache instantly. When Gu Beichen appeared, she didn''t know that he had such a relationship with that person... If she knew Oh, what if you know? Not married? At that time, did she still have the right to choose? "What are you thinking?" Gu Beichen has faded the charm of the two of them when they were alone in the villa. At the moment, he has always seen the indifference and alienation seen by outsiders. Looking at Jian Mo''s eagle eyes, he seems to have a sharp edge that can understand everything else, "which man do you want?" Chapter 4 "If I told you I was thinking of you, would you believe it?" Jane Mo asked with a smile. Gu Beichen replied without thinking, "I don''t believe it." "But I''m really thinking about you..." Jian Mo was thinking about Gu Beichen''s idea, "wondering if one day, little three and four will come and pour sulfuric acid on me..." Jian Mo sighed bitterly, "although I don''t rely on my face to eat... But if you don''t want me one day, I have to rely on my face to find the support in the future, don''t I?" Gu Beichen listened to the woman''s nonsense and didn''t interrupt I don''t know why. He doesn''t feel bored with this woman''s nonsense about running the train. Sometimes he feels very tired. At the beginning, I chose Jian Mo as my wife. To a large extent, I thought she knew her position In the past two years, he also confirmed this. It''s harmless for the woman to eat a little vinegar occasionally, but it''s mostly to please him. She never asks what he does at ordinary times... Even if the scandal is all over the sky, she can be calm. He doesn''t know what the outside world says about the mysterious "Mrs. Gu". Most of them say that Cinderella married into a rich family has no way to resist even if she wants to resist. But even so, she never showed any unhappiness... Just like when they met, she needed money. And for more than a year, she really only needs his money. At the thought of this, Gu Beichen felt a little uncomfortable... Why is this woman different from other women? Whether it''s people or money, at least one must be put in her heart, right? The driver is Xiao Jing, Gu Beichen''s personal special assistant. Listening to Jian Mo say there all the way, he glances back from the rearview mirror from time to time, and the corners of his mouth can''t help recalling In fact, he likes Chen Shao''s contracted wife very much. People are beautiful and never give Chen less trouble. It was less than half an hour''s drive from lanze garden to Gu Ci''s Lishan villa. After the car stopped in the parking space, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo got off the car. As soon as she got out of the car, the nerves in Jane Mo''s body began to tighten Although she knew it would take another year for the man to go abroad, she just couldn''t control her tension. "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen found something wrong with Jian Mo, "isn''t it uncomfortable?" Jane Mo quickly restrained the little secret in her heart, pulled the corners of her mouth and shook her head, "probably a little tired... Nothing." Gu Beichen slightly sank his face. "What''s there to do with that work? Isn''t the money I gave you enough to spend?" "Didn''t I plan ahead?" Jane Mo''s voice was filled with a little coquettish anger. "If one day you dump the divorce agreement for me... I have to support myself because the agreement can''t peep and covet your money?" Gu Beichen listens to Jian Mo''s eloquent words, and feels uncomfortable again... Will this woman''s position be a little too straight? Although, this is what he hopes "Let''s go." Gu Beichen slightly sank his face and took the lead in stepping forward. Jane Mo slightly sipped her lower lip, made psychological construction in her heart and followed up... Now, her only happiness is that Gu CI didn''t know her existence at the beginning. She can''t imagine what it would be like if Chu Zixiao knew that she had become his little aunt now At the beginning, when Qian decided to marry Gu Beichen, she knew that she and Chu Zixiao were completely finished. Not only because she wants to get married, but also because the first night when they agreed to wait for him to come back is gone... She is no longer worthy of his so-called "world-oriented" love. "Little Jane has looked thin again recently..." Gu Ci''s face was covered with care that people couldn''t see the true and false, and said, holding a piece of abalone in Jane''s foam plate. Jane Mo smiled and said "thank you". After a few hypocritical words, she remained silent. Today, Gu CI asked Gu Beichen to come back for dinner. It was mainly a large-scale project just obtained by emperor group from the government. Chu group also wanted a share. But everyone knows that Gu Beichen has an iron hand in business. With a stroke of his pen, he is a man wrapped in a horse''s clothes... Even if it''s his brother-in-law''s company, it''s unkind. Therefore, Gu CI wants to make an appointment at home and ask Gu Beichen to give her a face, so that Chu''s group can join in. But who is Gu Beichen? In a few words, he tore the topic away. Chu tianqin and Gu CI had no way to turn the topic back several times. "Oh..." Suddenly, Jane Mo had nausea for a while and hurriedly covered her mouth with her hands. Before she could say anything, she got up and ran to the bathroom Several people who ate on the table forgot what to say for a moment, and some of them couldn''t react. "Jane, this is..." Gu CI paused, then looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously, "yes?" Gu Beichen''s eyes brightened instantly when he heard this. It seemed that he was surprised... He hurried up and went to the bathroom. After two minutes, the two came out together. Jane Mo''s face was obviously a little worse than that just now "Brother in law, elder sister, I''ll take Jane Mo to the hospital first." Gu Beichen put down this sentence, and the man helped Jian Mo out. Chu tianqin and Gu CI can''t stop even if their problems haven''t been solved today... If they are pregnant, it''s Gu Beichen''s first child. They can''t delay?! On the way back, Jane was as light as a cloud. Where else did she just look uncomfortable? "I helped you so much... How can you thank me?" Jian Mo asked pleasantly, wondering whether to take the opportunity to talk to him about the design draft. "Didn''t I help you?" Gu Beichen asked. "..." Jane Mo was at a loss. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep. "Who''s on pins and needles every time? I''m cooperating with you to leave early. Shouldn''t you thank me?" "..." Jane Mo was speechless. Gu Beichen suddenly bullied him and said vaguely in a low voice with evil Charm: "plus one at that time, it seems that you have to pay it back tonight..." "Your ability to confuse black and white... You are really a businessman." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. "Is that what you wrote?" Gu Beichen ignored the driving in front. Xiao Jing, who had been reading "don''t look at me if you are not polite" because of the warming atmosphere behind him, grabbed Jian Mo in his arms, "thank you for your praise!" "..." Jian Mo really doesn''t have any idea about such a cheeky Gu Beichen at the moment. Finally, Jane Mo didn''t get any benefits After returning to the villa in the evening, Gu Beichen rolled it up and down, left and right, front and back. She was thinking... Why does Gu Beichen come back like a hungry wolf?! "Have time to think about something else?" Gu Beichen saw that the people under him were not focused. He hooked an evil radian on one side of his thin lip and said slowly, "it seems... We have to do it again!" Chapter 5 Bird! Jane Mo sat in the office as if she were falling apart. She was angry when she thought about it... She could only secretly scold her mouth. What about the cold and domineering President?! Why did Mao turn into a bird when he was in bed? Where is Gu Beichen so cold and bloodthirsty as rumored? He is clearly a well-dressed bird... When wearing clothes, he is well dressed. If he takes off his clothes, he is inferior to a bird! "Sister Mo, if you use more force, the pen will break..." Five minutes later, she found that sister Mo didn''t know she came in, but she was struggling with a drawing pen. "Huh?" Jane Mo suddenly woke up. After a short circuit in her brain for a few seconds, she suddenly found her gaffe, sorted out her emotions and asked, "what''s the matter?" Xiang evening handed over a folder and said, "this is the customer service list just sent by the business department. Do you want to see if there is any inspired design?" Jane Mo took it and opened it. After turning over a few, she suddenly saw a name. She couldn''t help but wonder, "Lu man?" She looked up at the evening. Nodded to him later, "well... It''s the big star Lu man... Moreover, the house is the Yudu apartment newly completed by the emperor!" "Tut Tut," Xiang night shook his head and sighed, "Chen Shao is generous... It is said that the apartment there is 30% higher than the market price, and you may not be able to buy it with money..." Then she lay on the table with gossip on her face, "sister Mo, you said... This apartment can''t be used by Gu Beichen to hide her beauty in a golden house Jane Mo smiled and was noncommittal. "Sister Mo, why don''t you design this..." Xiang night''s eyes suddenly brightened. "I can''t point back because Lu man built Gu Beichen''s bridge." It''s Jane''s wife who keeps up with the trend of marriage, but it''s good for her to catch up with the trend of marriage! Gu Beichen, doesn''t she need someone else to build this bridge?! "Looking back, Beichen sat in the room you designed... His eyes lit up!" I didn''t see the depression at the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes at night, but the more I said, the brighter my eyes were, just like the arranged plot, "wow... This design is great!" Xiang night waved his hand and learned Gu Beichen''s feeling: "from the first floor to the 18th floor of the club, Jane Mo, who designed the house, contracted it!" It seemed that there was a scene in front of her. Suddenly she was amused by herself and laughed "Girl... Did you forget to take your medicine when you went out today?" Jane Mo couldn''t stand turning her eyes, then hung her eyes and continued to look at the customer list. She turned her mouth to the evening, shrugged her shoulders and said, "sister Mo, I''m serious..." she said with her lips, "the club won the design, and the boss recommended you to UCL. It''s plated with a layer of brilliant gold!" "Lu man will take a fancy to our company, largely because our company has high confidentiality in the industry..." Jian Mo said without raising his head. "If you know I''m going to design for Gu Beichen, do you think we will lose more than we gain?" At the same time, Jian Mo looked at the evening and couldn''t help sighing when she saw that she was wilting. "Don''t say whether it has damaged the credibility of our company..." Jian Mo then said, "do you think that even if Gu Beichen likes my design, Lu man will be foolish enough to introduce a woman to him?" Xiangwan was even more discouraged. "No..." she looked at Jian Mo, "not to mention a big beauty like sister Mo!" "..." Jane Mo felt that she couldn''t get together with Xiangwan, so she shook her head helplessly and continued to look. Xiang night leaned over the glass table and said, "Chen Shao is hiding in the golden house outside. I really want to know what Mrs. Gu thinks... Doesn''t matter? Doesn''t matter? Doesn''t matter?!" Jane Mo listens and her thoughts are a little separated She likes Gu Beichen''s money, not his people... Now that she has money to spend and can solve her physiological needs, what can she think?! "A man can also be a curse..." Jane Mo snorted coldly, with a touch of unknown impatience in her heart, but it was too fast to find it. After turning around, Jane Mo pulled out a duplex house, "this single I..." Before Jian Mo finished her words, her mobile phone rang... She saw that it was from Tang Haoyang''s office. She took the lead and said, "director?" "You come to my office..." "Good!" Jane Mo answered and hung up the phone before explaining to the evening, "I''ll take this. Specifically, you can contact the owner about the time to see the house and discuss the design scheme." "Well..." Xiang night looked at the number and answered, "I''ll contact you now." "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." Tang Haoyang was signing the document. He looked up and saw that it was Jian Mo and motioned, "sit down first." Jian Mo sat down opposite Tang Haoyang. After he signed the document and handed it to the Secretary, he asked, "director, what''s up?" "Emperor, where are you going to start?" Tang Haoyang asked. Jane Mo pondered and said with some guilty heart, "there is no direction for the time being..." Tang Haoyang took out a business card from the drawer. "This is the business card that I asked Chen Shao to help... You can see and contact." Jian Mo frowned and felt a little sad... The problem is not that he can''t contact the emperor, but that Gu Beichen won''t agree to release the water. Even her brother-in-law is unkind. What is a contracted wife? "Xiao Jian, I believe you..." Tang Haoyang looked at Jian Mo with a serious face and gave high hopes. "The industry is eyeing covetously this time. If Xiangyu can get in, I would like to see both public and private." There are 10000 grass and mud horses galloping and roaring in her heart. Jane Mo is a little depressed and wants to run away. But in the end, he took the business card with gratitude, then smiled and said, "director, I will try my best." Leaving Tang Haoyang''s office with confused thoughts, Jian Mo is not well... Especially when she sees Xiao Jing''s business card. Meeting room on the top floor of emperor group. Gu Beichen knocked the table with his fingers, but the soft voice became particularly penetrating because the whole conference room was silent. "No one has a solution?" Gu Beichen''s light voice spilled over his thin lips, his eyelids lifted slightly, and his deep eyes slipped through the executives present. Executives are silent one by one. At present, whoever speaks first will die... If they don''t speak, they will be scolded. The meeting room fell into silence again, so that everyone was out of breath and always felt a little lack of oxygen. "President," the general manager can only speak hard, "this time..." At the right time, a mobile phone "buzzed". Everyone was so nervous that they thought their mobile phone rang. But on second thought, it was muted or turned off during the meeting. Everyone''s eyes turned to Gu Beichen, the first one. He picked up his mobile phone and looked at it. He frowned slightly. It was a text message sent by Jian mo. Jane Mo: it''s hard for your wife to work... As a husband, should you support your work. Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep and went back to the past: Well, quit your job and I''ll raise you. Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and sent it again: don''t quit, will you? She also carried a cute expression. Gu Beichen thin lips micro hook: say, what''s up? Jane Mo: I heard that the emperor has a club to design recently. As your wife, I seem to be an architect! Gu Beichen can almost imagine the expression of Jian MOFA when he sent this message. His eyes must flash like a fox: how can you repay me if you want me to promise to release water? When Jian Mo saw the text message coming back, she was so angry that she gnashed her teeth, but she went back to the past: is it good to pay for the meat? Chapter 6 Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s text message, involuntarily raised his thin lips, and his eyes became deep He didn''t realize it, but the executives in the conference room were facing great enemies... When did they see Gu Beichen smile like this? That''s definitely a very dangerous time, especially when you have to lay off staff or prepare to swear! One by one, they swallowed it uncontrollably. They knew that Gu Beichen had such an expression because he was looking at his mobile phone, but they still felt that it might affect the fish in the pond. Gu Beichen didn''t return information to Jian Mo, but after pressing out the mobile phone, eagle eyes slipped over the executives: "there''s no plan yet?" Different from the faint smile of the evil spirit just now, Gu Beichen''s face was serious, and there was no expression on his carved face. "The president thought that he would be able to take out a solution for the cold sweat for one day..." the president thought that he would be able to solve it for one day. " Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently raised an arc like nothing, "one day?" The general manager''s Adam''s apple rolled down, "half a day, half a day... We must come up with a solution before work today." "Good!" Gu Beichen replied, "I hope you don''t let me down... The meeting ends." Then he got up and left the meeting room with one hand. Until he left, the people in the conference room breathed out secretly. They were all nervous and their backs were wet. Jian Mo propped his head with one hand and looked straight at his mobile phone... After the meat compensation text message was sent, Gu Beichen didn''t reply, and he didn''t know what he meant. "Alas..." Jane Mo sighed and murmured, "do you agree or disagree? It''s impolite!" Angrily threw the mobile phone on the desk, and Jane Mo planned to ignore it first. Because many buildings have come out recently, large and small construction companies have fallen into a busy But no matter how busy, where there are women, there will be gossip! "I think there are only two people who are most curious about Lu man!" Ding Dang raised his scissors and turned left and right. "First, is there any hidden rule for her new film? Second... How many% of the scandal with Chen Shao is true? Or is it for the hype of the new film?" "..." Jian Mo looked at everyone plainly talking about gossip, and then pulled Gu Beichen, and said reluctantly, "please don''t mention Gu Beichen, I''m not well." Xiangwan grinned, "don''t introduce, sister mo... You can''t just think about the pressure from the director. You have to think... If you can win this design order, the money will be golden!" She raised her eyebrows. "Should you be motivated?" Jane Mo shrugged her shoulders and continued to look at the night with resentment: "there''s nothing at all..." "Mo Mo, don''t be too stressed..." Mo Xiaoya looked at her with a frown. "If we can talk down, it''s good. If we can''t talk down, we don''t lose anything, do we?" Jane Mo sipped her lips and nodded. Then she got up and went to the tea room to make coffee for herself. The women outside are still studying Gu Beichen, the national husband. Jian Mo leans on the work grid and listens to everyone''s jokes. Her mind is a little deep After work, Jane Mo dragged her tired body back to lanze garden. As always... There was no one else in the empty little garden villa except her. Jane Mo simply made herself some dinner. After eating, she took a bath and went to bed. Sitting in bed, she thought whether to send another text message to Gu Beichen to ask However, looking at the time, I don''t know which beauty they are having dinner with or directly entering the gentle village. Isn''t it good for her to disturb at the moment? Think about it or forget it! Jane was bored and simply opened the Los Angeles forum to see the circle of architectural design. Who knows, someone just put up the overall picture of Yudu apartment and several classic house type photos, including Lu man''s house type There is no eternal secret in this world, especially for Lu man, a public figure. As soon as the photo of Yudu apartment was released, it was immediately revealed that Lu man appeared in Yudu apartment... The rumor of Gu Beichen''s suspected affair with Jinwucangjiao was boiling on the forum like locusts crossing the border. Because of the scandal between these two people, some people who have nothing to do on the forum began to study Mrs. Gu again People''s curiosity is inflated. The more they don''t know, the more curious they are. The more curious you are... The more curious you are, the more you know! It was originally to look at the news of the construction circle, but at last Jian Mo was laughed to death by the comments on the crooked building Because her husband Gu Beichen was involved in everything, those female fans directly scolded Lu man for being worthless. In the end, the topic was skewed by Lu man''s fans, saying that Gu Beichen had bought high-end real estate for Lu man. I''m afraid the status of Mrs. Gu is not guaranteed, and divorce is a matter of time. Jane Mo is a little embarrassed... Now the support rate of this junior is higher than that of the original! What kind of world is this? Seeing the joy, the quiet space suddenly rang. With a chill in her heart, Jane Mo sat up... Won''t she be robbed? Thinking like this, I couldn''t help getting more nervous. Jane Mo swallowed it secretly, lifted the quilt, got out of bed, and crept to the bedroom door. When she thought about whether to open the door, the door handle was suddenly twisted... She took a step backward reflexively. Gu Beichen still held the doorknob in his hand, looked at Jane Mo, looked at him in amazement, and frowned slightly. "You, how did you come back..." Jane Mo asked. Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but a pair of deep eagle eyes slightly lowered their eyes Jian Mo was wearing a silk pajama. Because she didn''t wear underwear after taking a bath, she was in front of her chest Gu Beichen''s eyes became more and more profound. Jian Mo suddenly realized something, and his reflective arms surrounded his chest. "Don''t you know?" Gu Beichen''s evil spirit hooked his thin lips, "I don''t know... I only know that I don''t see white." Then, as soon as he fished his long arm and turned around, he had put Jian Mo against the wall, "besides, I''m looking at my wife." She closed her eyes and sniffed. Jane Mo''s body is her habitual bath milk, but the fragrance is not strong. The faint fragrance of flowers is mixed with her body fragrance, which is really charming. Jane Mo thought his heart beat faster as he approached. "Why didn''t you say a word when you came back?" Gu Beichen''s smile deepened. "Didn''t someone say they were going to pay for meat? Why didn''t I come back..." "..." Jane Mo listened, and with a change of heart, she hooked her lotus root arm on Gu Beichen''s neck, blinked her big apricot eyes and asked angrily, "are you... Going to support me?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but bent over and kissed Jian Mo''s lips After a while, Jian Mo was softened by Gu Beichen''s gentle and domineering kiss. If it wasn''t for him, I''m afraid she couldn''t stand stably. Just when Jane Mo was kissed and couldn''t breathe, Gu Beichen just let her go. Looking at her reddish cheeks due to lack of oxygen, he leaned over her ear and said in a low and magnetic voice: "meat compensation... How can it be regarded as a condition? This is the obligation of husband and wife..." Then, before Jian Mo could slow down, Gu Beichen picked him up and went to the big bed Chapter 7 Jian Mo fanned his eyes. Gu Beichen had put him on the bed He held her in the middle with his hands, and said with evil eyes: "I''ll take a bath... You can think about what you can do in addition to meat compensation." Jian Mo mechanically fanned her eyes again, and looked at Gu Beichen''s charming Sansheng on the edge of her thin lips. She was so handsome that she gave up her arms and surrendered with a faint sigh, and then showed a little pity. "Tut Tut, I can''t stand your expression..." Gu beichenjun''s face is full of helplessness, "think hard and give you five more minutes!" Then he leaned over and pecked at the corner of Jane Mo''s lips, then got up and went to the bathroom. Jane Mo turned her eyes secretly. In addition to her addiction to Gu Beichen''s money, she was also addicted to his beauty, saying that she was speechless to herself. Gu Beichen took a bath more than usual for about five minutes... When he came out, his hair was a little wet, and his lower body was wrapped casually with a white bath towel. Jane Mo looked sideways Under the dim light, his figure with six abdominal muscles can be previewed. The bewitching Mermaid line stirred her heart. The perfect figure with thin clothes and meat when undressed! "Saliva all came out..." Gu Beichen casually wiped his wet hair with a towel, and then walked over. Jane Mo was a little embarrassed. She was embarrassed to see her figure when she first got married. Finally, she could see it openly and boldly. She really became an "old husband and wife". "What you said... Don''t look at it for nothing!" Jane Mo smiled with pride in her eyebrows and eyes, "am I obedient, too?!" Jane Mo is a beautiful woman. She is not only a flower in school, but also a school flower. It''s not like a vase. Learning can be called learning bully... There are many boys chasing after in school. At the moment, Gu Beichen is deliberately in a provocative posture. If Gu Beichen doesn''t eat directly, he''s sorry for himself Both Gu Beichen and Jian Mo are as satisfied as ever. But Jian Mo''s tragic discovery, Gu Beichen''s physical strength is really great... Every time she comes back, she is exhausted and has no ability to think about anything else, okay? The next day, when the sun shone through the heavy curtains into some fine sunshine, Jane Mo''s biological clock woke her up. She found herself still in Gu Beichen''s arms. She smiled and kissed him on his cold face. Her voice was bleary and hoarse after waking up and said, "ah Chen... It''s good to wake up in your arms!" She said and rubbed against his chest. Gu Beichen didn''t open his eyes, but said lazily: "if you have nothing to offer hospitality, you can steal if you''re not a traitor!" "..." when Jane Mo heard this, she immediately felt guilty about Gu Beichen hundreds of times. But she''s the gold Lord and the one who can influence whether she can go to UCL or not. She has to please... I''m a good Yu soldier early in the morning, kind plug! Jane Mo wants to cry without tears. She wants to knock her fist out! Pulling at the corners of her mouth, Jane Mo raised her head slightly, put her chin on Gu Beichen''s chest, and rubbed him with her chin. "I have no other way except to compensate me with meat... I promised!" Jane felt a little nauseous. She felt very shameful for her constant whining... Although Gu Beichen had always seen her like this. Gu Beichen was in a bad mood again because of Jian mo. when he opened his eyes, the ink pupil overflowed with hot light. He turned over and had pressed Jane Mo under him "Light the fire early in the morning. It seems that I didn''t satisfy you last night!" Gu Beichen does what he says and never talks about it. Jian Mo''s dissatisfied side "scolded" and was provoked by Gu Beichen. She could only cooperate to complete the ambiguous exercise in the morning first. The final result was that Gu Beichen still didn''t let go and agreed to release water directly from the top of the group, but she was eaten several times! In the first round, Jane Mo lost miserably! Dragging his aching body to the company again, he looked at Jane Mo for a long time at night. Just now, the thief whispered, "sister Mo, is your boyfriend very fierce? Look at how you can''t walk this way... Tut Tut, I don''t know how to cherish fragrance and jade." Jane Mo immediately looked black. "What''s the little girl thinking?" "I''m not a little girl. I''m twenty-one. Besides, sister Mo is two years older than me. Don''t make me like a child all day..." muttered to the night, and then followed into the independent small design room, "sister Mo, is there anything wrong with the emperor?" "No!" Jane Mo thought of Gu Beichen as soon as she heard the emperor, and her face became darker. It''s easy for her to warm the bed as her wife?! Gu Beichen is a pit father goods, deliberately give her wrong reverie, and finally deceive her. Hearing this, Xiang evening raised his eyebrows and said mysteriously, "I heard a news early in the morning... Last night, er Yu and President Lu of the business department went to a banquet in the real estate industry and got involved with Zhongpeng again." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth. Looking at the little girl, she was not worried at all, but gloated. Her mood was inversely proportional to the sunshine outside. In this case, it seems impossible to finish the design project without efforts! Sure enough "Momo, the director asked everyone to go to the meeting room for a meeting." Mo Xiaoya shouted. Jian Mo looked at Xiang Wan''s cracked smile and wanted the director to change the design internship assistant... People are assistants who please the superior. Why does the assistant block her all day and wait to see her play?! Jian Mo can''t figure it out. What''s more... Yu Ziyun and Luo Xiaojing of Zhongpeng have been fighting for many years. Why aren''t you tired? "Anyway," Yu Ziyun said with a calm face, "Jian Mo, the design of the emperor''s club this time, you have to get the first floor whatever way you want..." Jian Mo said calmly, "the emperor is beyond our control, Mr. Yu... I can only say I try my best." Everyone swallowed and admired Jian Mo for facing the choking, but they couldn''t help worrying about her. Jian Mo has been here since her internship in University. Beauty, ability, popularity, responsibility and courage are her pronouns. The whole design department likes her very much... Although she is telling the truth, everyone can see that Yu Ziyun is in a bad mood. Yu Ziyun didn''t expect Jian Mo to match him face to face, and suddenly blackened his face, "why, you don''t think you can do it?" "I have confidence in my design... But there are too many uncertainties about whether the design can be sent to the comparison draft." Jian Mo took out the information collected in the construction circle and handed it to him. "The Su family in the north of the city plans to invest in a concert hall in Los Angeles. I think this can also be tried..." For this news, all the people present were surprised and subconsciously looked at the folder handed over by Jian mo. After reading Jian Mo, Yu Ziyun took the information and looked through it. With a wild ruffian face, people can''t understand his mood at the moment Jane Mo pursed her lips and said, "Mr. Yu, what do you think?" Chapter 8 Yu Ziyun knew that he was being impulsive, but he didn''t earn it back. In the future, he won''t mix in this circle and won''t let Luo Xiaojing look down on that dead woman? "President Yu, Su Junli has just returned from abroad, and the concert hall of the Su family is named after him in English..." Jian Mo continued. "Although the Su family is in the art world, the concert hall has a close relationship with Su Jun. if you can get the engineering design, you should not lose the club of the emperor." Yu Ziyun''s face was a little bad, but he looked at the information carefully and finally relaxed "Alternative... Jian Mo, the concert hall is no matter how small, but as you said, it should also be named after su Junli. It''s unknown whether it can be won." Yu Ziyun paused. "The club is the top priority. I hope you still take this as the first!" "OK, I''ll find a way." Jane Mo answered. After the meeting, Yu Ziyun was sent away. Everyone didn''t leave the meeting room... Everyone looked at Jian Mo with concern. "Jian Mo, work hard..." Tang Haoyang sighed and got up and left the conference room. Suddenly, the meeting room exploded. There are angry, worried, silent and helpless... From beginning to end, only Jian Mo looked calm. Of course, it''s not because she is Gu Beichen''s hidden wife. But she understands that the emperor is difficult at the threshold "Civic and Dingdang, you two help me to contact the Su family first." Jian Mo calmly ordered, "see if there is a chance to send the design drawings in the past..." "Good!" Xu Siyu and Ding Dang answered. "Sister Mo," Xiang night looked like she wanted to cry without tears, "why do I think these two are half weight?" Jane Mo sighed, "work hard." She nodded with the crowd and they left the meeting room. Everyone seemed to get busy because of the meeting all morning, and Jane didn''t have some leisure until the afternoon. Sitting in the swivel chair, Jian Mo wondered how she could have the opportunity to participate in the comparison of imperial design drawings, but no matter what she thought, it seemed that there was only one result... Impossible! At the right time, the pleasant mobile phone ring came, disturbing Jane Mo''s thoughts. She was stunned, then responded and picked up her mobile phone. When she saw that the call was "Dr. Wang", she was shocked for a moment and hurried to answer the phone: "Dr. Wang, is my mother uncomfortable?" "Your mother is fine. She''s still the same." Dr. Wang sighed, "Xiao Jian, they are all embarrassed to call you, so they can only call me... The fee paid last time has long been gone, and the charge can''t be delayed, so they don''t dial the medicine." Jane Mo felt uncomfortable, "well, I know... I''ll send the medical expenses as soon as possible these two days." "OK." Dr. Wang sighed again, "little Jane, have you ever thought about giving up... The drugs to maintain your mother are imported from abroad and are too expensive... It''s not affordable for ordinary people at all." "How can I let her die when she looks at me?" it seems that my mother won''t let me die at once After hearing this, Dr. Wang could only sigh and answer, "I''ll go to the pharmacy for credit myself. You can think of a way these two days." "Thank you, Dr. Wang." Jane asked a few more questions and hung up. "Dong Dong!" Xiang night knocked on the glass door and came in. At a glance, Jian Mo''s eyes were red, "Mo Mo, what''s the matter?" She hurried forward, "don''t put too much pressure on yourself. It''s a big deal. I recommended it this year. Let''s make persistent efforts next year." Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth. "It''s not this thing... I''ll go out and find me later. I''ll say I''ve found a way to contact the emperor''s people." Then she got up, took her cell phone and bag and left. Xiang night was stunned in situ. Some people couldn''t react. When the reaction came, Jane Mo had no one for a long time. Jane Mo drove around the streets of Los Angeles. When she got married, Gu Beichen offered her a living allowance of 20000 a month. It should be enough to think about supporting my mother''s disease... But I didn''t think that 20000 is far from enough after adding new drugs because my mother''s physical function has decreased recently Ask Gu Beichen for money? Jane Mo parked her car on the side of the road and involuntarily put on a self mocking smile. What reason does she want money for? What''s more, how does her mother need to speak in the process of maintaining the medicine she uses until she finds a suitable heart transplant? Jian Mo lies on the car seat with some weakness, and falls in front through the windshield with weak vision Suddenly, she looked at a sign standing on the roadside in front of her, suddenly sat up and stared at it. After determining the content on it, her eyes burst into joy. Get out of the car, Jane Mo quickly walked over and asked for a leaflet first "Miss, are you interested?" The big boy who handed out the leaflet smiled and asked, "we do public welfare activities... We can ask for prices for the designed drawings, half for charity and the other half for your copyright." Seeing that Jian Mo has been reading the leaflet, the big boy hurriedly said, "there will be many celebrities coming at that time. As long as you design something that the other party likes, you may gain unexpected value." Jian Mo looked at the time. It was in the afternoon. "Can you design anything?" "Anything is OK..." the big boy smiled and nodded. "If you''re OK, you can prepare first." Jane nodded, then went to park the car where it could be parked for a long time, and went to the venue There are already several people painting in the scattered inside. Jian Mo has a general look. There are people from all walks of life. Because she signed a contract with Xiangyu, she couldn''t design buildings privately. After thinking about it for a while, she decided to draw a set of jewelry... If she brought a woman, she might sell it at a good price. If time permits, she may be able to draw more Time passed slowly while Jian Mo was drawing carefully, because she studied design and was sensitive to things and fantasies. By the time of auction, she had completed a set of works. Jane Mo chuckled and didn''t notice a deep and sharp eye light falling on her. She just made the final touch up for the design drawing, and then wrote "falling in love" on one side. Looking at his design with satisfaction, Jian Mo put the drawings in a special display place "Beichen, the design of that set of jewelry is very special..." suddenly, a woman''s voice came when Jian Mo was about to turn around. Jane Mo''s body suddenly shook and her heart wailed for a while. When Yu Guang caught a glimpse of the familiar figure, she covered one side with her hand reflexively and turned her face to one side. In my heart, I roared: can''t see me, can''t see me, can''t see me Gu Beichen copied his pocket with one hand and the woman circled his arm. One looked at Jian Mo and the other looked at the design drawing... Both eyes were full of laughter. It''s just that the woman is amazing and Gu Beichen is sarcastic. "Chen, will you buy this design?" The woman said slightly with a burning red lips, "go back to the jewelry store and play a set according to this..." Gu Beichen still looked at Jian Mo in his eyes. His eyes were dim and couldn''t see to the end. He just hooked a thin arc at the corner of his mouth, and gently opened his thin lips: "good!" "I don''t know how much this design costs?" The red lipped woman looked at Gu Beichen and asked. "No matter how much it is, she asks!" Gu Beichen''s voice was so light that people couldn''t hear the real emotion. He didn''t leave Jian Mo from beginning to end, as if he wanted to see through her at once! Chapter 9 Jane Mo just felt that she was about to see a hole by him, and she couldn''t hide. She could only look at him with a hard head... But she regretted at the moment when she was right. Gu Beichen put a sneer on his thin lips, as if he saw through the purpose of Jian Mo here. I felt that the air around me was frozen and my heart beat slowly... Jane Mo pulled down the corner of her mouth and said hard, "two... 200000!" "Cheap!" Gu Beichen slightly hooked his mouth, directly took out the check, brushed a few strokes and handed it to Jian mo. He let go of the woman around him, leaned forward, deliberately and slowly in Jane Mo''s ear, and said in a nervous voice: "why not... If Miss Jane has any good design in the future, you can contact me, huh?" Jane Mo only felt that her heart suddenly "clicked", but she soon recovered her calm: "OK... As long as you can afford the price." "You know..." Gu Beichen didn''t change his face, but his voice became more and more low. "I can afford it." The words fell, and the cold, carved face made people unable to see the real emotion, so they got up slowly. Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth, but she tried to keep the smile at the corners of her mouth and didn''t let herself reveal too much self mockery. "Give me a contact information..." Jane Mo smiled like a flower, probably because of her real relationship with Gu Beichen. Speaking of these, it''s natural and doesn''t make people feel artificial. "Otherwise, if there''s a good design, how can I sell it to you?" The red lipped woman saw her so, and her eyes overflowed with ridicule. She clearly felt that Jian Mo took the opportunity to hook up with Gu Beichen. "At eight o''clock in the evening, heaven night came to me." Gu Beichen opened his mouth lightly. The eagle''s eyes overflowed with warning. After looking at Jane Mo, he turned and left. Jian Mo didn''t look at the check in Gu Beichen''s hand until Gu Beichen left. She mocked herself at the corners of her mouth... Finally, she took the money from Gu Beichen''s hand. Taking half of her own from the organizer, Jane Mo drove her modern car, which was an old car in Gu Beichen''s eyes, and rushed to the hospital. After giving the check to the hospital, Jane Mo went to Dr. Wang and found out about Sumer''s recent situation before she went to the ward. Jane Mo draws water and wipes Su Mo''s body. Looking at Su Mo who is still unconscious, she feels uncomfortable and flustered My father fell off a building in an accident at the construction site, and my mother had a heart attack. Now I can only rely on drugs and instruments... And other suitable heart transplants. Everything seems to be different from that heavy rain night But even though all the misfortunes were crowded on her, she was still glad that she met Gu Beichen in the most difficult time. No matter what he wanted a wife for, she had never been so grateful at that moment. "Mom, your son-in-law is very rich, so... Don''t worry about anything, so you can get better without burden, okay?" Jane Mo wiped Sumer''s body and said, "he is very kind to me and helps me in life and work..." Jane Mo just said the recent interesting things, as if she had never been unhappy in front of Sumer. After everything was done, she kissed Sumer''s emaciated face, "Mom, I''ll go first. You have to work hard... I''ll work hard, too." As she spoke, her nose suddenly sour, and all her strength outside seemed to become fragile in front of her mother. Out of the ward, I happened to meet Dr. Wang for ward round. "Dr. Wang, please worry more..." Jane Mo sipped her lower lip. "If you have a suitable heart, you must inform me." Dr. Wang nodded with a sigh and couldn''t bear to persuade again. In fact, as we all know, Sumer is now fully supported by imported drugs. The medical expenses of more than 30000 a month are simply not affordable for ordinary families. Moreover, even if there is a suitable heart in the later stage, without saying the cost, people may not be able to completely avoid exclusion... The final result is that people and money are empty to a great extent. "Alas, such a little girl is really difficult for her..." Dr. Wang looked at Jian Mo''s back and sighed, but shook his head. Jian Mo just got out of the hospital and her mobile phone rang. Seeing that it was Tang Haoyang''s phone, she picked it up and put it in her ear and said, "director?" "Jane Mo, there''s a dinner party in the evening. You go with me..." Tang Haoyang said directly. "I asked. Gu Beichen may also go... Take this opportunity to see if you can give me a chance." Jian Mo has a headache, "director, I..." "Jane Mo, you also know that Yu and Zhongpeng bite hard." Tang Haoyang said in a heavy tone, "even if you don''t think about the company, you have to think about your own future. Isn''t it? It''s about recommending you to UCL..." Jian Mo listened to Tang Haoyang''s tone and made it clear that she couldn''t get rid of it. In addition, she used the excuse of emperor if she didn''t go back to the company today... It would be too fake to push now! Thinking that Gu Beichen said that he would go to heaven night at that time, he should not appear at the dinner party. Jane Mo went back and changed into a shoulder length chiffon skirt. Look at the time. There is less than an hour to the agreed hotel. Drive from here, almost The dinner was in the famous Nanxiang building in Los Angeles. As expected, as Jane Mo expected, there was not even a shadow of Gu Beichen on the dinner table "Sorry, I''ll go to the bathroom." After Jane Mo politely said hello, the man got up and left the box. She doesn''t like such a meal. It''s also the hot eyes of men. Gu Beichen can handsome birds to a new height. These people will only make people sick. "Little Jane, go to the bathroom, too?" Jane Mo just wanted to enter the bathroom, but she was shouted by the man who came out. As soon as she saw that she was the leader of a bureau, she pulled her mouth: "yellow bureau!" "You go first. I''ll wait for you to go back." Huang Ju grinned and immediately the flesh on his face trembled. Jane Mo turned her eyes secretly and said with a unchanged smile, "no, Huang Bureau, you go first. I have to wait a while." "It''s all right, just have a cigarette..." "..." Jane Mo couldn''t say anything, so she had to go in. Jane Mo grinded back and forth in it for more than ten or twenty minutes, thinking that the Yellow Bureau couldn''t wait?! But as soon as I went out, the man was still there! "Huang Ju, sorry to keep you waiting..." Jian Mo carefully kept a safe distance from him. "Then, let''s go?" "Don''t worry..." Huang Ju''s eyes glowed uncomfortably. "Xiao Jian, Xiao Tang just said, your design is very good!" Jane Mo didn''t know what he was going to do, so she could only smile and nod, "it''s the director''s appreciation..." "Xiao Tang has been praising you just now..." Huang Bureau continued with a grin. "Is Xiao Jian interested in the design of our newly completed office building?" "..." Jane Mo, it sounds like this greasy yellow bureau wants to secretly rule her! "It depends on the company''s arrangement. I''ll do it when assigned to me..." As soon as the Yellow Bureau heard this, the man pretended to deceive Jian Mo for a few minutes. "Since Xiao Tang recommended it, you must be superior. Otherwise... I''ll study it and give it to you?" Jian Mo retreated, "ha ha, thank you. Huang Ju loves it so much. What we do is the above arrangement... Ah..." Suddenly, Jian Mo''s backward step sprained, and the whole person immediately fell aside uncontrollably. As soon as Huang Ju saw her, he hurriedly grabbed her... He didn''t know whether he meant it or not. Jane Mo was pushed to the wall by him. This is a wall Dong?! This is not dog blood, what''s more... Jian Mo''s head deviated under the influence of inertia, and his vision was on a pair of deep ink pupils that made people feel cold under the soles of his feet. Gu Beichen is really in Nanxiang building Chapter 10 Gu Beichen stood at the corner with his hands copying his pockets. After Jian Mo saw it, his eyes converged back, "yellow Bureau, what a coincidence!" As soon as Huang Ju heard someone, he quickly let go of Jian mo. seeing that it was Gu Beichen, he immediately smiled: "Chen Shao also came here for dinner..." he thought of Jian Mo next to him and explained with a little embarrassment, "little Jane, be careful when you walk. Don''t fall in front of me again." This became her seduction Jane Mo secretly feigned, pulled the corners of her mouth and said, "thank you for the Yellow Bureau... Otherwise, she really fell down." She finished her speech with exquisite faces and hurriedly said hello, "Huang Bureau, I''ll go back to the box first." Without waiting for Huang Ju to speak, Jian Mo hurried over Gu Beichen and left... But when she passed by him, she obviously felt a cold air pressure coming. Back in the box, Jane Mo said that she had just sprained her foot accidentally and wanted to leave first after saying hello. Tang Haoyang saw that he had no chance to connect with Gu Beichen. In addition, these men kept staring at Jian Mo one by one. For fear that she would suffer losses, he agreed to let her leave first. Jian moru was on the verge of amnesty and hurried out regardless of the eyes of the people... But the talent turned the corridor and met Xiao Jing. "Miss Jane, Chen Shao asks you to wait for him in his car!" In order to avoid unnecessary misunderstandings, Xiao Jing always calls her Miss Jane instead of a fanciful title like little lady. Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth: "can''t you go?" Xiao Jing said with a smile, "Chen, don''t talk, you can!" As soon as Jian Mo heard this, she was relieved... However, she was almost choked by Xiao Jing''s words before her breath fell back to her stomach. "However, Chen Shao said... If you don''t go, don''t mention any conditions." Xiao Jing''s words meant something. Jane Mo continued to twitch at the corners of her mouth, and then reluctantly followed Xiao Jing to the luxurious and domineering Spyker. It is estimated that Xiao Jing sent a text message to Gu Beichen. He came quickly... But it was more than ten minutes before and after. "Go to heaven night!" Gu Beichen ordered after getting on the bus. Xiao Jing answered, started the car and drove to heaven night... Then drove attentively, completely ignoring the treacherous atmosphere of the two people in the back seat of the car. After arriving at heaven night, Jane Mo knew she had made a mistake today... Well, although she didn''t think it was a mistake. But he obediently followed Gu Beichen out of the car, and then went all the way to the box. There were already several people in the box. When they saw Gu Beichen coming in with Jian Mo, they were stunned at first, and then frowned and sent out several women around them. Jane Mo knows all these people. The legendary four young people in Los Angeles! In addition to Gu Beichen, the eldest dragon owl, the second Li Yunze, the fourth Lin Nannan... I know these people, but I haven''t contacted them. It''s only limited to knowing each other''s existence. "Tut Tut, what''s the situation?" Lin Nan rubbed to Gu Beichen''s side, looked at his face and couldn''t help looking at Jian Mo, "I said, what''s the matter with the third sister-in-law and the third brother?" Since getting married, Gu Beichen has never brought Jian Mo to their four little parties. In fact, only a few people know who Jane is in the newspapers and magazines. Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth and wanted to smile politely... But she couldn''t laugh in such an atmosphere. Long Xiao and Li Yunze looked at each other and didn''t speak. They both looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen took the cigarette and lit it without talking. He was so stiff Lin Nanan was the most active of the four. Regardless of others, he went directly to Jian Mo, "third sister-in-law, our third brother, what do you mean?" Jian Mo is not used to shouting "three sisters in law" to Lin Nanan. Others don''t know what happened to her and Gu Beichen. She thinks these people know, "I, I don''t know..." She didn''t know whether Gu Beichen was angry because she sold the design drawings in the afternoon or because of the accident with the dog blood of the Yellow Bureau... But from the moment he got on the bus, the man was silent. She wasn''t a roundworm in his stomach. She couldn''t guess. "What do you want to drink? Let''s go south..." Li Yunze asked, breaking the deadlock. Lin Nannan also felt that the atmosphere was wrong and hurriedly asked, "yes, what does the third sister-in-law drink?" "I''ll just..." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, a little embarrassed, "thank you." "No, they''re all from their own family. Why are you polite?" Lin looked south at Gu Beichen. "Third brother, do you think so?" Gu Beichen was still cold. The crowd saw that the atmosphere was a little stiff. Fortunately, they were familiar with each other. The Dragon owl also said, "if there is anything to be solved, it will be solved. What is such a cold field?" Gu Beichen directly twisted out the cigarette butt in the ashtray, "I''ll go first. Today, the account is on my head..." he said. He pulled Jian Mo up without tenderness. No matter whether she stood firm or not, he pulled her out. Jian Mo''s sprained foot was pulled by him so vigorously that he could hardly stand stably in pain... It can be seen that Gu Beichen didn''t care at all, so he stubbornly endured the pain and didn''t breathe out. Gu Beichen directly stuffed Jian Mo into the car and said coldly, "go back to lanze garden." Xiao Jing looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror, started the car and drove to lanzeyuan... However, along the way, he just felt that the atmosphere seemed more rigid than when he came here. At the villa, Gu Beichen got out of the car and entered the house. Jane Mo got out of the car and looked at his back. She was wronged in her heart, but she still tried to calm herself Endured the pain from her ankle and entered the house, Jane Mo pretended to be relaxed and said with a smile: "are you angry?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with dark eyes. As soon as he caught her, he threw her into the sofa. With the trend, people also pressed over Jane Mo''s sprained foot broke again because of gravity. She almost didn''t shed tears because of the pain. "Jane Mo, are you short of money?" "Huh?" Jane Mo didn''t react because she endured the pain. Gu Beichen''s eyes became darker and darker. "My Gu Beichen''s wife needs to go to such a charity auction place to sell designs? My Gu Beichen''s woman needs to have a relationship with a man like Huang Ju? Huh?" "I didn''t..." Jane Mo frowned painfully. "No?" Gu Beichen sneered, "it doesn''t matter whether you don''t sell design or fool around..." "Selling half of the design drawings is also for charity..." Jane Mo said, avoiding the important and taking it lightly. She was a little wronged in her heart, but she forgot to be soft now. "I didn''t seduce him in the Yellow Bureau... Believe it or not!" The more she said, the more she was wronged, but she still endured the pain in her ankle and heart and pushed Gu Beichen. "I''m tired. Can you let me sleep today?" Gu Beichen didn''t move, just pressed Jian Mo''s shoulder... He has never taken care of her life since he got married. It can be said that they haven''t gone to bed much when they get along. But when Gu Beichen''s woman needed money, she sold the design drawings... She could only be wronged if she was molested by others? What the hell charity? If this is really the reason, she shouldn''t be afraid to look at him in the afternoon! "Quit your job tomorrow!" Gu Beichen said coldly, "you need to rely on the hidden rules. What have you done?" Chapter 11 Jane Mo gently fanned her eyes, and a pair of star eyes became colorful under the light. "Can we not mention the resignation?" Her tone softened. "It was an accident at night." After a slight meal, she simply didn''t push Gu Beichen. She hung his neck on her arm and said in a soft voice: "if a man wants to take the opportunity to wipe off oil in the future, I will slap him... Who cares who he is and who calls my husband Gu Beichen?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at this deeply. He had just been wronged. At this moment, he recovered the simple foam he had known before, and his thin lips slightly hooked a cold radian. Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen unmoved. With his support, the man looked up and kissed at the corner of his lips, "we''re not angry, okay..." Gu Beichen sneered, "what are you doing for money, huh?" He was not fooled by Jane Mo, and the eagle eyes looked at her sharply. Jane Mo was slightly silent, thinking about whether to tell Gu Beichen about her mother''s dressing change But sometimes people are very strange. It''s one thing to start selling yourself for a reason, but it''s another thing to continue to use this reason to win sympathy later. At least Jane Mo can''t do it. Under such an ambiguous relationship with Gu Beichen, she continues to ask him for money. "I like a dress and think you''re not here, so I can''t call you for money..." Jane Mo deliberately makes herself look greedy and vain, and says innocently and pitifully, "it''s good to see this activity, do charity and get extra money!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with sharp eyes, as if to see through her... This woman loves money, he always knew. That''s why he married her. A purposeful woman is easier to handle... Having a fixed warm bed companion is not bad for him. Moreover, when this woman is in bed, she really attracts him. At first, he would also wonder if Jane Mo would expand her bath hope because of the long time and want to get more from him. But in the end, it was found that in addition to the living expenses that the woman talked about when she married him, it was normal expenses on weekdays He gave the jewelry, and Susan bought the clothes and daily necessities. It seems that... She never asked for anything extra. "Say what you want to buy in the future!" Gu Beichen said with deep eyes, "look at your performance. How about giving you a supplementary card?" Jane Mo''s heart was astringent, but her face was still charming with a smile, "will the card be taken away?" She pursed her lips. "Wouldn''t it be pitiful if you took away the card in case we were separated one day, and I was used to spending money and couldn''t find the next gold owner?" Gu Beichen smiled, "why, afraid of greed?" "Why not?!" Jian Mo''s tone was a little sad, "just like now, the most important thing to go out to work is not to let yourself get lost... You know how easy you are to indulge in your vortex." Gu Beichen''s smile gradually filled the bottom of his eyes. Obviously, Jian Mo''s words pleased him Jane Mo kept up her efforts. "Don''t be angry about today''s affairs. I''ll come to you if I need to buy something in the future, and I''ll resolutely protect myself, huh?" Then she looked up and kissed Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen quickly reacted to this provocation. He also knew that this woman was trying to divert his attention... In fact, in addition to their certificates, how many people really knew they were married? Intoxicated by the night, what remains unchanged is the madness under the love of men and women at night. "Go take a bath..." "No!" Jane Mo gave a coquettish hum, and the man had rolled inside. Gu Beichen''s eyes sank. "It''s dirty." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, the man turned back and asked Gu Beichen, "dirty, you like it too... I''m so tired. How about getting up and washing tomorrow morning?" Then she kissed him on the Adam''s apple. Gu Beichen''s eyes sank, "I don''t mind if you continue to play with fire!" How dare Jane Mo continue to tease him? She really can''t bear him... As a man with money, beauty, tools, good work and abdominal muscles, Gu Beichen really has the capital to make women crazy. "So tired, sleep..." Jane Mo said with her eyes closed. Gu Beichen saw that she was really tired, so he didn''t take her to take a bath. He directly hooked her into his arms and began to sleep At the moment when the light was turned off, Jane Mo slowly opened her eyes, and the pain on her face gradually cracked. At that time, I hooked Gu Beichen on the sofa, mainly thinking that he was on fire and would hold her upstairs... Her ankle really hurt badly, and it was estimated that it was swollen. Who knows that she was so angry that she fell down... After all this trouble, her ankle hurt a little numb. At this moment, she stopped and began a stabbing pain, which made her forehead overflow with cold sweat. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil, like a hawk and falcon, was particularly bright in the dark. The people in his arms opened their eyes. He knew it... It was not that he knew more about Jian Mo, but that her eyelashes were too long and her eyes moved, which swept his skin and itched. Jane Mo was afraid to disturb Gu Beichen. She secretly gritted her teeth and endured the stabbing pain. Later, she closed her eyes casually... She didn''t know the pain since she fell asleep. Xu was really tired, and soon Jane Mo fell asleep. When the biological clock woke her up the next day, she forgot the pain in her ankle and suddenly moved "Hiss -" Jian Mo''s pain was uncontrollable, so she took a breath. Just for a moment, a thin layer of sweat overflowed from her forehead. "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen opened his eyes and saw the twisted appearance of Jane Mo''s beautiful face. He couldn''t help asking. Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, then pulled a smile and said, "just dreamed that you were angry and dumped the divorce certificate for me. You woke up at once... Then when you saw your handsome face, you suddenly felt that the whole world was beautiful!" "So afraid I''ll give you a divorce agreement?" Gu Beichen asked with thin lips. Jane Mo nodded seriously, "of course... After divorce, big houses and luxury goods will be useless!" Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo on his forehead, "if you are good, you won''t receive it." Then he let her go, got out of bed and went to the bathroom. "I''m going abroad these days and won''t come back." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she was relieved, "that... The water discharge designed by the club..." "Come back!" When Gu Beichen put down four words, the man had closed the bathroom door. Jane Mo was stunned. Did you mean to let go? Chapter 12 Gu Beichen left. Lanzeyuan''s family has always been the place where he would come back only after he wanted to find Jian Mo to solve his physiological needs. Of course, he can come and go freely. As Jianmo''s wife, he just needs to wait for the emperor''s occasional luck, but can''t complain. However, after the Jane family collapsed two years ago, Jane Mo has no place to go now... There is a big house to live in, why doesn''t she live?! "Sister Mo, are your feet better?" When I came in the evening, I saw that Jian Mo was applying safflower oil and put the information of the previous duplex building on the desk. "It''s been three days. Why is it still a little swollen?!" Jane Mo wanted to say that it was just a small sprain, but finally one after another big action... It''s not swollen. "Is the other party satisfied with the design concept?" Jane Mo washed her hands and turned back. Looking at the information, she asked. "Yes." Xiang night answered, "the other party likes this simple style very much, but asks for a space for the piano in the living room..." Jian Mo looked at the frame diagram of the house, nodded and asked, "do you say how many people live?" "It''s like one..." said Xiang night. Jane Mo is not surprised. There are many celebrities in Los Angeles, and more people buy homes everywhere. Many times, the houses they design may not be able to live for a few days throughout the year. Jane Mo signed the receipt and asked Xiang night to send it to the engineering department for filing. Then she saw Xu Siyu and Ding Dang coming back from outside. Looking at the two people''s shriveled face, Jane Mo estimated that things in the concert hall were still not optimistic "Alas, it''s really not easy to make a design now. It''s the same as grandson. No one has bird you yet!" Xu Siyu sighed sadly. Ding Dang also tooted his mouth. "For several days, we haven''t even seen Su Junli''s face..." she couldn''t help getting angry. "One side said that Su Junli in the concert hall participated alone and let us ask him face to face. On the other side, we can''t see anyone at all. How can we ask?" Looking at the two people''s deep resentment, Jian Mo also had a headache. "Mo Mo, if you can''t do both, will Yu always go crazy because he doesn''t have face?" Ding Dang shrugged his shoulders and his voice became chatty. Jane Mo was silent and just said, "I''ll try..." Asked the next two people to find out the situation of Su Jun in recent days. Jane also checked the information before the investigation and left the company. Instead of going to the Su family mansion in the north of the city, she drove to a park in the west of the city... Fortunately, her sprained foot is her left foot, which won''t hinder driving. The park is very big. After asking someone about the area of the park, Jian Mo turned slightly and walked to a pond planted with taro flowers. In the distance, a man in a white polo shirt and aqua blue casual trousers stood beside the sea potato flower field with his hands in his pockets... In the sun, he hung his eyes slightly, and a touch of unruly short hair gently blocked his sight. Jane Mo couldn''t help stopping, leaned slightly against the fence on the arch bridge and looked at it quietly When the breeze blew and raised the taro flower field, his broken hair moved gently, overflowing the fundus of his eyes with a touch of sadness. Su Junli, who is well known as a child prodigy of music since childhood, is said to have more than eight kinds of musical instruments at home and abroad in addition to his attainments in piano. Such a person is doomed to an extraordinary life But at the moment, Jane Mo felt that he just wanted an ordinary job! Looking at it like this, Jane Mo couldn''t bear to disturb this beautiful picture... She suddenly thought that everything described by the media was not suitable for this man at all. Looking at the beautiful corner of Su''s face for a long time, you can''t leave it Jian Mo always felt that Gu Beichen had been handsome and had no friends for minutes... But now seeing Su Junli''s smile, she suddenly felt that she had been too superficial before. Trying not to let his steps be too strange, Jian Mo generously stretched out his hand: "Hello, I''m Jian Mo from Xiangyu design department." Su Jun frowned imperceptibly, "about Adrian concert hall design?" Jane nodded. "If Mr. Su doesn''t mind, can you find a place to talk?" As she spoke, her legs and feet moved slightly. Su Junli is a careful man. "Is your foot hurt?" "I sprained before... It''s not in the way." "Oh?" Su Jun Liqing said, "I thought you deliberately let me see... And then tried to arouse my pity and get a chance to lobby." Jane Mo twitched slightly at the corners of her mouth and felt dissatisfied: no one told you that a gentleman should not expose the cleverness of a beautiful woman? Pull the corners of your mouth and laugh! "Will Mr. Su give this chance?" Su Jun''s smile from the corner of his mouth never changed, but his eyes inadvertently slipped over the long hair raised by the wind. On the dark scar exposed behind Jian Mo''s ears, the fundus of his eyes slipped a touch of surprise. "I''m a gentleman..." Su Junli''s gentle smile made people feel like a spring breeze in such a scorching sun. Jian Mo was able to see through her stomach Fei. She only felt that the soles of her feet were cold, and looked at Su Jun Li with some vigilance. "I majored in psychology before..." Su Junli explained. This time, even the bottom of my eyes was smiling. What reaction can Jane Mo have except pulling the corners of her mouth now? I hate being with people who are proficient in psychology most in my life. This is the only idea after Jian Mo contacted Su Jun... Because all your thoughts, he can peep into your little actions and eyes. Jane Mo shrugged her shoulders and asked with less confidence: "Mr. Su, can you say a word..." she said bitterly, "seriously, I feel very stupid in front of you." "Can we be friends?" Su Junli felt that the person in front of him was very cute. Obviously, he had a lot of emotions in his heart, but his expression was different. Such people are either afraid of injury or refuse to hurt! "I made a profit by making friends with Mr. Su!" Jane Mo shrugged. "Jun Li..." "Huh?" Jane didn''t react for a moment. Su Junli smiled and said, "since you are a friend, don''t shout from Mr. and miss. You can call me Junli and I''ll call you Momo... OK?" Jane Mo nodded generously, "in fact, I also feel so relaxed..." "As a friend, I will give priority to your design!" Jane Mo felt that she was a little funny today... No, it should be said that in front of Su Junli with high IQ, she found out how anxious her IQ was. After the reaction, Jane Moxing''s eyes brightened, "really?" "Of course..." Su Junli''s voice is pleasant and soothing, just like violin music, which makes people relaxed. Jane Mo was a little disappointed at first, but she saw the beginning but couldn''t guess the ending... Unexpectedly, she won a chance while having more friends! After leaving Su Jun, Jian Mo returned to the company As soon as they heard about her, they settled Su Jun''s departure, and their eyes protruded. "Sister Mo," Xiang night suddenly rubbed against Jian Mo''s side, hugged her arm with both hands, and worshipped with a pair of star eyes, "you have settled Su Junli so quickly, I believe... You can also settle the emperor." Jane Mo listened, rolled her eyes and said, "error correction... Is not done, but won a chance!" Then he suddenly thought of what Gu Beichen said when he left that day, and wondered how true his words were Chapter 13 "Anyway, Su Junli agreed to give the opportunity. With sister Mo''s ability, I think he can see it..." Xiang night said more confidently than Jian mo. Jane Mo pursed her lips and smiled, but she didn''t feel so relaxed at night Although the concert hall is small, whether from the appearance or inside, it not only considers the mood of the performer, but also the psychology of the audience. Each link can not fall into the stereotype. If she wants to finish the design, she has to think about it. There was design inspiration in her mind. Jian Mo bit the pen of the drawing pen in her mouth and thought about Su Junli''s information... When she found him from the sea potato flower field, he seemed very melancholy at that time? A person who has become famous since childhood and has a good life... What is the melancholy? Music inspiration? Or emotional problems? "Don''t go, Mo?" Da Xiong asked when he saw that Jian Mo was still in the design room. "Huh?" Jane froth revived. Da Xiong raised his wrist, pointed to his watch and motioned. Jane Mo then realized that it was time to get off work, "let''s go..." she said, and put the drawings and materials in her handbag. She planned to go to the cafe she often went to and continue to think about the design drawings. At the intersection of a shopping mall, a school team blocked the road. Jane Mo simply stopped and waited for the children to pass first. Jian Mo looked around a little bored, and his sight fell on the large screen of the mall. He saw that the title of "Chen Shao travels abroad with a actress and arrives in Los Angeles on the same day" was particularly large on the large screen. On the screen, the reporter surrounded Lu man who came out of the VIP channel of the airport, put the microphones forward one by one, and the flash lights flashed one after another. "Manman''s recent affair with chenshao has always occupied a hot topic. I don''t know where the relationship between Manman and chenshao has reached?" Lu man smiled with enchanting smile, and said with flattering eyes: "we are just friends..." she said officially, "the relationship we think can only be more talked about." Her words fell, and a reporter hurriedly asked, "foreign media photographed Chen Shao on a business trip to the United States, accompanied by a woman who is very similar to Manman... I don''t know if it''s Manman you?" The picture is cut small. What occupies the screen is a photo... Although the target photo is far away, it can be seen at a glance from the people familiar with Gu Beichen. Beside him is the back of a tall woman who can''t see her face clearly, but her big curly hair like seaweed is indeed consistent with Lu man. "I''m going to the United States to be a spokesperson..." Lu man said with a smile. The assistant and agent on one side have begun to give her a way. "Manman, can you tell me if xiachenshao intends to divorce Mrs. Gu?" "Man man, I heard that Chen Shao has sent you a ring, hasn''t he?" "Manman..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± On the big screen, Lu man didn''t answer another question, but got off the bus under the escort of the security guard, agent and assistant. The car drove away reluctantly, leaving only a text on the screen... Gu Beichen and Lu man went abroad for a romantic trip and sent a love ring. Is it the mysterious loss of Mrs. Gu''s status or Lu man''s third party? Undoubtedly, as a married Gu Beichen, Lu man has had affairs with him several times in a row. The end point of the media today is to implement her "junior three" crime to win the amount of topics. "Didi, Didi -" From behind came the urging sound of the whistle. Jian Mo subconsciously looked back and then took back his sight. Seeing that the road was unobstructed, he quickly started the car and drove forward The entertainment industry has always been a big dye vat, and the gossip of stars and rich people is the favorite of the people. Naturally, when such news comes out, if someone supports Lu man, naturally someone will sympathize with the experience of "Mrs. Gu". Of course, some people want to know what Mrs. Gu thinks when she sees Gu Beichen''s gossip all day. Jane Mo really doesn''t have any ideas at the moment... She has always put herself in a right position since she got the certificate. It is also clear that she and Gu Beichen will run counter sooner or later. From beginning to end, she managed her heart very well... Don''t think about the past, don''t miss the present, and don''t fantasize about the future. That night, she lost everything. Not only the Jane family, but also the body and heart are cold! The car stopped at the parking space at the gate of the cafe. At the right time, a faint sound of "Di" came. Jane Mo takes out her mobile phone and opens the text message Mr. G: what are you doing? Jian Mo was slightly stunned and frowned at the message... Gu Beichen never sent her a message except that he would inform her that he would return to lanze garden. Jane Mo skimmed her lips and went back to the past: she had just gossip about the news of her husband and actress''s mysterious trip abroad. Gu Beichen quickly came back: Hmm! Huh?! Jane Mo twitched uncontrollably at the corner of her mouth. I don''t know what this "um" means?! Just before she could figure it out, the mobile phone vibrated. It was Gu Beichen... Jane Mo left the corner of her mouth and answered the phone. "I just got off the plane and grandma asked me to go back to dinner." Gu Beichen''s voice was as low and magnetic as ever, just as mellow and charming as the cello, "where are you? I''ll pick you up..." Jane Mo was slightly stunned, and then asked, "where are you?" "On the way back to the airport..." Gu Beichen''s voice was indifferent. "If I''m still in the company, I''ll arrive in 40 minutes." "I didn''t work overtime. I''m already on my way home." Jane Mo hurriedly opened her mouth and joked. Whether she was there or not, Gu Beichen went to the station of the company and couldn''t make any scandal when he turned back. "Let''s meet at home!" Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep, and his thin lips were slightly hooked with a crooked radian. He was inexplicably comfortable with the word "home" that Jian Moyi was anxious to say. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered indifferently. Jian Mo waited until Gu Beichen''s reply, hung up the phone, then hurriedly started the car and drove to lanzeyuan Gu Beichen unknowingly put a thin smile on the corner of his mouth. He pressed out his mobile phone and looked out of the window At the end of the shady road is lanze garden. Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently waved a radian of evil, showing the domineering spirit of everything However, there was a little dissatisfaction in the deep eagle eyes. All the women who were involved with him were eager to be exposed to the public with him, except Jane mo... Did he lose her job or something? Chapter 14 Gu Beichen didn''t get off the bus when he arrived at lanzeyuan. He just waited in the car... About half an hour later, he saw Jane Morse''s white Hyundai coming. He frowned slightly. He had an impulse to smash the broken car that Jian Mo drove, which was only a little over 100000 after completing the formalities. After stopping the car, Jian Mo looked at Spyker and immediately sent a text message: I went upstairs to change my clothes and waited for me for five minutes... MMM! Looking at the text message, Gu Beichen slightly hooked a thin smile on one side of his thin lips... That smile, but it reached the bottom of his eyes in an instant. kiss you?! This woman can always watch his affair with other women at the last moment and be close to him at the next moment as if nothing had happened. Gu Beichen tilted his head and just caught a glimpse of Jian Mo entering the villa. At that moment... His eyes were dark and deep. Grandma Gu lives in a suburban villa in the east of the city. Jian Mo and Gu Beichen often come back to eat with the old man... The wedding was held there, but even if few people came to attend the wedding. Those who didn''t arrive include Gu Beichen''s parents "Mo Mo, why do you look thin again?" Grandma Gu was very satisfied with the granddaughter-in-law, although she knew that her grandson had married the girl because she had placed 20% of the shares of the emperor group in her second son, Mo Huai. Jane Mo smiled at grandma Gu. "Grandma, thin is popular among girls now... Beautiful bones." Grandma Gu pretended to hang her face. "It''s hard to bear if you lose weight... I''m waiting to hold a great grandson." "Grandma, Beichen thought that I haven''t graduated yet. It hasn''t been long since I graduated!" Jian Mo talked about deceiving people. He was very smooth and didn''t make people feel false at all. "I''m also planning to have one with Beichen recently." Gu Beichen kept silent from beginning to end and watched Jane Mo play there alone. Grandma Gu frowned. "I heard that girl Xiaoci said you had it?" Jane Mo thought about the consequences of going to Gu Ci''s side to play that day. Suddenly, her face was filled with lost eyes. "I thought it was... But finally went to the hospital. The doctor said there was something wrong with my intestines and stomach." Grandma Gu saw that Jane Mo was holding back her lost sadness and hurriedly took her hand and said with relief: "don''t worry, don''t worry, since you want it, Xiaochen will work harder and have it soon..." she said, and she looked at Gu Beichen vaguely. Gu Beichen has a thick skin and nothing... Jian Mo blushed at once. "Well, Jane Mo and I will work hard..." someone thought Jane Mo was not ashamed enough and said seriously with a serious face. Grandma Gu was very happy to see that the couple were very harmonious. Seeing that Gu Beichen didn''t object to having a child, she was relieved... After dinner, she hurried the couple back to work hard. Back to the villa, Gu Beichen also had some work and went directly to the study. Taking advantage of this opportunity, Jian Mo took safflower oil to another room and rubbed her ankles. She was afraid that the smell was too strong and didn''t dare to do it in the bedroom. Because it was still early, Jian Mo took the design drawing of the concert hall and continued to draw... But she was not satisfied with the skeleton and simply let her chaotic thoughts rest. It''s almost eleven o''clock in the evening after Jian Mo took a bath. Gu Beichen seems to be still busy. As a considerate and good "wife", Jane Mo felt that she must consciously seduce the busy man There''s no way. Gu Beichen is cold and arrogant in front of people. Privately, he is a bird with full evil interest and hot combat effectiveness. If he is at home and she goes to bed first... The consequence is that he wakes up directly, and then he doesn''t want to sleep all night. Gu Beichen was holding a video conference. After hearing the knock on the door, he glanced at the person in the video and said, "let Susan follow up the rest. I want to see the plan tomorrow." Then he turned off the video recorder at the moment when Jane Mo pushed the door in. Jian Mo has just finished taking a bath. Her hair is half dry and she is wearing a cotton nightdress. The whole person is different from the cold and gorgeous when she painted thin makeup. She shows the lightness of lotus water. Gu Beichen''s eyes are well aware that his body can always respond to this woman at the first time "It''s late. Don''t you go to bed?" Jane Mo walked over and sat down directly on Gu Beichen''s leg. Her arm naturally circled his neck. "What, think?" Gu Beichen gently sniffed her breath. Jane Mo smiled like a flower, fanning her eyes and looking at Gu Beichen. People can''t see how sincere she is at the moment, "well, you''re so charming that everyone wants to." Gu Beichen smiled. His slender and powerful fingers twisted Jian Mo''s semi dry hair and played with it. For a time, the atmosphere became heart beating because of silence "Ah Chen, I think I''ve become more beautiful after taking a bath!" Jane Mo broke the silence and said, "do you think so?" "No..." Gu Beichen said mercilessly, with a smile in his voice. "You''ll think that because you''re out of your mind after taking a bath." "..." Jian Mo was speechless. What about the agreed flirting? What about the good atmosphere Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s stiff expression and was in a happy mood. He kissed her earrings and said in a low voice, "it''s all right. I won''t want you because you''re out of your mind... Are you very happy?" After asking, he looked up at her with a smile. Jian Mo looked up at Gu Beichen''s ink pupils that seemed to suck people into the abyss. The corners of his mouth twitched. His body sat stiff and wanted to move, but suddenly stopped Feel what has been arrogant against her, Jane foam is out of control, and her face turns red in an instant. The bright moon hung in the ink sky, and suddenly a wisp of cloud covered it slightly, as if the enthusiasm in the house even made it look shy. After a while, the war spread in the study Jane Mo didn''t know how she and Gu Beichen went from the study to the bedroom. She always dealt with this energetic person. She was also drunk. Feeling deep, Jian Mo hooked Gu Beichen''s neck and asked, "ah Chen, help me with the water discharge..." This manual work has been done. Why do you have to get some benefits?! Chapter 15 There is a kind of person in this world. He can be handsome to a new height every minute. Naturally... He can shamelessly have no lower limit at any time. Jane Mo thinks that men have always been the animals thinking about their lower body in love. When they feel deep, they have to ask Gu Beichen to agree But finally... Jian Mo sighed heavily. She felt depressed about the fact that Gu Beichen didn''t promise to go through the back door last night. She won''t be in a good mood all day. Jane Mo angrily took the milk and drank it, thinking about how to persuade Gu Beichen to let her participate in the emperor''s comparison... But she thought about several schemes, which were directly strangled in her heart. Gu Beichen drank a cup of coffee. Eagle eyes looked at Jian Mo, who fell into his own thoughts, and his thin lips put on a thin smile, if any. "I''ll take you to work later, huh?" Gu Beichen put down the indifferent opening of the coffee cup, and then his eyebrow tail slightly picked an evil radian. Jane Mo immediately changed her face, "I''ll just drive myself..." "I''m so shameful?" Gu Beichen slightly sank his cold, carved face. Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, got up and went to the opposite side. After sitting down beside Gu Beichen, she pecked at the corners of his mouth and said with a flattering face: "I''m a disgrace..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered. Jane Mo''s smile increased at the corners of her mouth, but there was a cunning light in the depths of her eyes... This man is really itchy. "Want me to want you?" Gu Beichen looked at the flickering light at the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes and suddenly bullied warm ignorance and asked. "Er..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and said with a smile, "you think too much!" Gu Beichen''s eyes became hot and deep, tightly grabbing Jian Mo''s eyes. "You tossed so late last night, and now you''re still sore." Jian Mo''s voice is soft but not boring. She only sighed, "but I try so hard to please, but you don''t support my work at all." Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo''s lips, and his low voice spilled over his thin lips. "Do you want me to promise you to compare the draft?" "Yes!" Jane Mo nodded hurriedly, with urgency in her eyes. Gu Beichen smiled on one side of his mouth. His eyes were as deep as a thousand year old lake, which made people unable to see the end at a glance, "no!" "..." Jane Mo was speechless. "Are you really good at teasing me so much?" "All the emperor''s projects have a start-up process. Even if I want to be selfish, I have to have a name..." Gu Beichen''s eyes become deep and bottomless. "What''s the reason for giving you water?" Jane Mo stopped talking "Or... I''ll say you''re Mrs. Gu?" Gu Beichen smiled dangerously at the edge of his thin lips. "There''s no need to compare the draft. A whole club is designed for you... How about it?" "..." Jane Mo quickly shook her head and grinned. "The emperor''s system can''t be broken!" Gu Beichen''s smile deepened, slightly lifted his back, took the tie on one side and motioned slightly Jane Mo sighed, took the tie and began to tie it for him... Looking at the man''s rolling Adam''s apple, she wanted to take the tie away... Strangle him! Of course, she can only think for herself Gu Beichen enjoyed the service of Jian Mo, and Ying Mou closed her casual expression to the bottom of her eyes, but said calmly: "I won''t come back these two days..." "Yes!" Jane Mo is still clever. "I''ll take you to the elder sister''s place for dinner the day after tomorrow..." Gu Beichen then opened his mouth. Jane Mo frowned slightly, "why go again?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, "you seem to be particularly resistant to going to elder sister?!" Yes, but obviously it is already very certain. Jane Mo didn''t change her face. "I don''t like the way they look at me..." she didn''t lie. "Although I''m for money, but people are like this... Like to hide their ears and steal their bells." She tied her tie and had a soft voice. Her words were obviously happy again. Gu Beichen only heard him speak slowly: "if you don''t like it, you have to go there. You can''t push it." Jane Mo raised her eyes, "why?" If he doesn''t want to go, he can''t push it off?! Gu Beichen turned and took the mobile phone on one side and said, "Zixiao came back that day... He wants to meet your legendary little aunt!" Jane Mo''s calm face froze instantly, and her pupils widened... Her breath began to rush uncontrollably, and even her hanging hands began to tremble slightly. Gu Beichen turned around and saw what blow Jane Mo had suffered. He frowned slightly and asked, "what''s the matter?" Jane Mo instantly regained her consciousness, and hurriedly shook her head, "it''s all right..." "How did your face get so bad?" Gu Beichen frowned and looked at Jian Mo with sharp eyes, as if to see through all of her. Chapter 16 Jane Mo swallowed it secretly and covered all her emotions. "It''s not that you asked for extravagance last night..." her voice was filled with a bit of coquettish anger. Suddenly, I thank Gu Beichen for getting along with him for more than a year. It seems that any emotion can instantly change into an interest to please him. Sure enough, Gu Beichen smiled at the corner of his mouth, came forward to hold Jian Mo and kissed her eyebrows and eyes, "if you say... Because I''m sad that I won''t come back these two days, I''ll be happier." Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth, "if I really said so, would you think I was too greedy?" "Well, maybe." Gu Beichen picked his eyebrows, "but I''m still very happy." He charmed Sansheng with a smile, then let go of Jian Mo and walked out. Walk naturally, just like when you came Gu Beichen is born with a sense of superiority, not only because of his family identity and the blessing of the emperor group, but also because he is a myth of Los Angeles. With status, education, appearance and money... So that such a person naturally forgets how to put people in front of him and only knows how to let people chase his footsteps. Jane Mo was unable to think about this, but she was a little paralyzed and sat on the sofa The nose is very sour, and the eyes seem to swell and ache... Something gradually blocks the line of sight and blurs the whole world. Jane Mo curled up her legs, held her arms, and buried her face in her arms Is there a kind of person who can suffocate in pain as long as you mention his name? Chu Zixiao, the name for once Jian Mo, used to be synonymous with happiness and happiness... But since the night when he lost everything two years ago, he has become an untouchable pain. "Zixiao, it turns out that waiting is not as easy as I imagined. Sorry, I met another him in my life... Let''s break up!" No one knew how hard she was sending out the duplicity message. It was like a knife cutting her heart hard. She could hardly breathe because of the pain. Tears, hot overflow from the eyes, slowly meandering down the cheeks... Dizzy at the corners of the mouth, completely salty and astringent. Jane didn''t know how to expect her body to tremble so early. The former lover has become his husband''s nephew. What a ridiculous relationship? Jane Mo is not interested in doing anything all day, her face is not good, and her eyes are a little red... The atmosphere of the whole group today has become a little depressed because of her silence. "Xiangwan, you go to explore the wind..." Mo Xiaoya couldn''t stand such an atmosphere and fooled Xiangwan to ask what happened. Xiangwan hurriedly shook his head with a face of resistance, "no, sister Mo is cold today. It seems that she can freeze to death." "I don''t know what happened," Mo Xiaoya said, holding her cheek. "You can also help the staff." Ding looked through the glass at Jian Mo, who was staying in the design room and fell into his own thoughts, "according to my estimation... Lovelorn." "Shua", everyone looked at Ding Dang, one by one, as if she knew the inside story. Ding Dang sat upright and looked at the three people vigilantly, "I, I''m just guessing..." Everyone did not speak again, looked at each other, and then shrugged and pulled their shoulders... In fact, Jane Mo''s expression today is really a look of lovelorn, or the kind she was dumped early in the morning. However, her mood is no different from that of lovelorn at the moment... The depressed mood that has avoided for nearly two years burst out in an instant in the name spit out by Gu Beichen this morning. Jane Mo didn''t know how she got off work. The whole person got out of the elevator like a free soul. She didn''t go to see it at all. She just went to the first floor, not the underground parking lot. She followed people out of the elevator. When people stood outside the office building, she subconsciously looked up at the sky... It was still fine in the morning, and now it was suddenly gloomy, as if a storm was coming Seattle, the United States, is a rainy city. It seems that more than half of the year is bathed in rainy days. Chu Zixiao stood in a small white foreign building and looked at the continuous drizzle. There was a trace of indifference on his handsome face and no emotion at the bottom of his eyes "I''m going back suddenly. Why... I don''t want to give up?" Good friend Tang Yu opened the door and looked at Chu Zixiao''s back and joked. He leaned against the door with his arms around his chest. Chu Zixiao narrowed her eyes slightly and took out her hand in her trouser pocket. There was already a ring in her palm... Platinum, without complicated patterns, but there was a letter "J" in the inner ring. There was something sad in the bottom of his eyes. Chu Zixiao suddenly clenched his hand and tightly clasped the ring in the palm of his hand, the closest vein to the atrium Feeling the unusual breath on his friend, Tang Yu frowned slightly, "why? Don''t you want to go back?" He paused slightly. "Or... Afraid to go back?" "Ah Yu, I still remember the scene of our childhood airport when we came here..." Chu Zixiao said, with a trace of hoarse pain in his voice. "Did... All feelings lose to distance?" Tang Yu sighed deeply, "seriously... I don''t believe that Jian Mo is such a quick empathetic person." In those days, Luo University, as the school bully of the Department of architecture, was also the Jane mo of the school flower. Who doesn''t know? Cold and arrogant are like icebergs and snow lotus. They don''t pay attention to anyone at all However, girls like that have become warm because of Zixiao Their love is very famous. Everyone is a man of the hour. One is cold and the other is alienated in a smile, but when they come together, everyone feels that they are born for each other. In less than a year, Jian Mo said that she fell in love with others and wanted to break up with Zixiao... She didn''t give any room for maneuver, turned off the phone, and then changed the number, which was shocking. He still remembers that day, when it was raining heavily in Seattle, Zixiao ordered a ticket to return home like crazy, but it was fate Tang Yu didn''t want to recall that memory. He always felt too heavy, "I can''t put it down. Just ask when I go back..." No matter the pain or the hardship, you have to die to understand, don''t you? Chapter 17 "Sister Mo, didn''t you drive today?" He hurried out to the evening and saw Jane Morse standing alone by the column looking at the sky. Jane Mo suddenly regained her mind, hurriedly packed up her broken thoughts, looked around, and found that she was at the door of the office building, "open..." Xiang night walked forward with a worried face: "sister Mo, are you okay?" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and shook her head, "I''m fine. I''m just distracted by things..." as she said, she turned around and went back to the office building, planning to take the elevator to the underground parking lot. Xiang night looked at Jian Mo''s back like this, slightly tilted her mouth and sighed deeply... From the first day of her internship in the company and following Jian Mo, she felt that this student sister had a story. Others don''t know, but she has heard the story of Xuejie and Chu Zixiao in school... It is so crazy that they are occasionally talked about after they leave school one after another. At that time, Ding Dang talked about being lovelorn. I don''t know why. Her first feeling was that it was related to Chu Zixiao "Alas, long-distance love really ends in tragedy." Xiang night whispered helplessly, shrugged his shoulders and turned away. Jane Mo drove back to lanzeyuan without food. She went upstairs and threw herself into bed... I don''t know when she fell asleep. In her dream, she went back to two years ago. Her father''s construction company had no accident, and her brother was not infatuated with gambling... Although the family was not rich, they were always happy. Later, she dreamed of the first meeting with Chu Zixiao... At that time, she was pulled by her good friend Li Xiaoyue to listen to his class. There was an Oolong incident. She was not tired of seeing him for thousands of years, and then she went to the hand of her son to say the oath to grow old together with him. The wind gently blew in from the open window. It was getting into the late summer. The wind at night in Los Angeles was a little cool... When she slipped across Jane Mo''s cheek, I didn''t know when the overflow tears surprised her heart. When I woke up, it was more than five o''clock the next morning, and the East had just revealed the white belly of the fish. When the dream of one night woke up, Jane Mo didn''t remember much, but left a full heart of sadness that couldn''t be waved away Thinking of taking a bath, the talent just sat up and felt dizzy, as if there was a shot put rolling back and forth in his head. Jane Mo closed her eyes and took a few deep breaths before she felt relieved... Supporting her tired body, she got up and went to the bathroom. After taking a bath, my spirit was obviously much better, but I was still weak. Because it''s still early to work, Jane Mo nestled on the sofa and looked out through the clean French window, and gradually became conscious I don''t know how long it took. Jian Mo just took back his sight and took his mobile phone and sent a text message to Li Xiaoyue: Xiaoyue, he''s coming back. There are not many words, just a few words... But Jane Mo''s hesitation and fear, more sadness. After sending this message, Jane Mo kept holding her knees and looked out of the window... Looking at the gloomy arrival of the new day, she didn''t slow down because of her sadness. Some injuries think they won''t hurt if they don''t touch. It turns out... She''s always fooling herself and others. It was almost noon when Li Xiaoyue called. Now she is making a figure in the legal profession. Recently, she took a criminal defense case and was busy reversing black and white. "Girl, what do you mean by text messages?" Li Xiaoyue''s voice showed a capable calm, completely through the occupational disease. Jian Mo stood in front of the window and looked at the rows of high-rise buildings shrouded in drizzle and became a blur. "He''s coming back..." was the same sentence. "Why is it so sudden?" Li Xiaoyue questioned, "we haven''t received any news." Chu Zixiao, a Chinese, is now a shining star in the legal world. After two and a half years abroad, it has long been famous and spread back... If such a person wants to return home, the domestic paparazzi must have blown up the pot long ago? Jane Mo drooped her eyes. She hoped it was false... But how could Gu Beichen lie. After all, Zixiao is his nephew. It''s normal for his family to know when they come back, isn''t it? Feeling Jian Mo''s silence, Li Xiaoyue frowned. She knew her friend''s current situation, "what are you going to do?" "I don''t know..." Jane Mo''s heart seemed to be strangled by a rope. Li Xiaoyue was silent and finally said, "girl, you have to face it sooner or later... You have predicted this day since you know his relationship with Gu Beichen, haven''t you?" Jane Mo''s mood is more dignified. Predicting is one thing, but now when she really has to face it, she doesn''t dare. "It''s been two years. Maybe... Maybe he''s put it down?" Li Xiaoyue felt that as a lawyer, she shouldn''t make such an assumption, but even though she was eloquent at the moment, she didn''t know how to comfort her friends. With such a heavy heart, and whether she slept with the window open and quilt covered the night before, Jane Mo had a fever that afternoon... But because of something on her mind, she didn''t pay attention to what the dizziness came from. In this way, after another sleepless but drowsy night, Jian Mo''s disease came like a mountain. The next day, she supported to send a text message to Xiang night, saying that she was ill and would not go today, and then fell asleep After Gu Beichen sent a text message to Jian Mo, no one replied, so he simply called. No one answered the first time. His face was obviously a little bad. He called again, but no one answered. Such a situation has never happened, unless her mobile phone is not in front of her... Gu Beichen doesn''t think much about it. Look at the time and simply go back to lanzeyuan. When he arrived at lanzeyuan, Gu Beichen saw Hyundai parked in the parking space, frowned slightly, and then dialed Jian Mo''s phone, but no one answered. "It''s possible that where is Miss Jane''s mobile phone..." Xiao Jing felt Chen Shao''s unhappiness at the moment and subconsciously wanted to help Jane Mo explain. Gu Beichen didn''t speak. He just opened the door and got off and went back to the villa... There was no one on the first floor. He went upstairs to the bedroom. When he opened the door, the dignified atmosphere made his eyes slightly coagulate, and his eyes fell on the huge bed and the curled figure. Gu Beichen walked forward. His cold face was filled with haze, just like the weather outside. "Well..." The gentle whining broke the silence. Jian Mo seemed to frown uneasily and tightly. She didn''t know that she was still uncomfortable because of the nightmare. Gu Beichen leaned down at the moment when his eyes were condensed, and his slender and powerful, bony palm gently fell on Jian Mo''s forehead... The burning feeling made him frown at the sword eyebrow in an instant. Chapter 18 It was late at night when Jian Mo woke up. The quiet space, the pink environment and the unique smell of disinfectant belonging to the hospital made her gradually return to her mind and understand where she was. Slowly tilt your head, weak to dry eyes fall on the man who overlaps his slender legs and is turning over the documents, and the corners of his mouth inadvertently hook up It was raining outside and gently fell on the window, making the room more and more silent. "Have you seen enough?" Gu Beichen tilted his head, and the deep ink pupil looked at Jian Mo''s eyes. Jane Mo smiled, "you are so handsome, you can''t see enough..." because of the fever and the lack of food, her voice was obviously hoarse and weak. Gu Beichen''s eyes darkened and said coldly, "Jane Mo, are you a child? You don''t know to see a doctor when you''re sick?" Jane Mo''s face was bitter and looked at Gu Beichen silently for a while. She was wronged, "I''m sick..." "Is it reasonable to be ill?" Gu Beichen said softly, his face was still cold, but his breath was obviously soft. Jane Mo smiled. Although she smiled awkwardly, "I wanted to sleep for a while, but who knows I''ll sleep until you come back... It''s probably to make you feel distressed," she pursed her lower lip and continued to pull, "but obviously, there''s no heartache, only anger." Gu Beichen doesn''t believe Jian Mo''s words at all. After spending more than a year together, he still knows this woman Seeing that he didn''t speak, Jian Mo was cold with a handsome face and felt uncomfortable... Although the illness came suddenly, she still knew that it was caused by subconscious resistance to go to Gu Ci''s house. "The doctor said you were under the wind and pressure... So your body lost resistance." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and said, "Jane Mo, what pressure do you have?" Jian Mo suddenly "clattered" in her heart, and didn''t dare to look at Beichen''s penetrating eyes, "isn''t it that there''s no way to participate in the imperial comparison?!" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but just stared at Jian Mo quietly, trying to see the truth of this... But it was obvious that she looked haggard and could not be seen except weakness and grievance. "Ah Chen, you see I''m so stressed that I''m sick..." Jane Mo raised her eyes and simply told the lie to the end, "you agree." Gu Beichen got up and walked out directly with his hands copying his pockets. He didn''t say anything, leaving only the back of Jane Mo, a cold and arrogant Wei''an. Jane Mo took a smoke from the corner of her mouth and secretly said: bird, no compassion! Gu Beichen suddenly stopped, turned slowly, and looked at Jian Mo with sharp eyes. "Is he scolding me in his heart?" "..." Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth, "I''m such a kind person, I never swear." Gu Beichen twitched at the corners of his mouth, turned coldly and left Jane was left alone in the ward, feeling a little sour. Once a person is ill, he will be vulnerable and will think wildly... In the past, when he was ill, he was surrounded by his father and mother. Later, in school, one winter after being with Chu Zixiao, she had to take the qualification certificate and stayed late in the library... It was snowing heavily outside. She enjoyed playing for a while and caught a cold and had a fever the next day. I remember when he was very angry and blamed himself... Although she was ill at that time, she felt very happy. The door of the ward was pushed open, interrupting Jane Mo''s thoughts. She looked over and saw Gu Beichen come in with a food box in his hand. Jane Mo''s nose was sour in an instant. I don''t know whether it was moved or because memories hurt her heart. In short, when the tempting congee fragrance came into her breath, she wanted to cry. "That''s moving?" Gu Beichen sneered and helped Jane Mo up. Jane Mo''s eyes were filled with a thin mist. "Of course I''m moved when you''re so kind to me..." she sucked her nose. "Since you''re so kind to me, you''ll find a way to let me participate in the comparison." Then Jian Mo saw the haze on Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face. Jane Mo didn''t dare to mention it again. She took the porridge handed by Gu Beichen and ate it without a mouthful. "Elder sister..." she asked tentatively. "Send you to the hospital, no past." Gu Beichen said indifferently. Jian Mo wanted to ask Chu Zixiao whether she had come back, but she always felt it would be too abrupt. Finally, she didn''t ask, so she continued to drink porridge... She endured drinking half a bowl. Although her stomach was empty, she had no appetite. "Are you here with me at night?" After eating, Jian Mo was curious when she saw Gu Beichen walking to the sofa. But obviously, she thinks too much Gu Beichen went to pack up the documents, then handled the discharge for her, and took her back to lanze garden. Jane has a lot of fever at home, but she''s still sick after infusion Gu Beichen settled in Jian Mo and went to his study. There was a merger and acquisition case these two days. He was really busy. Because after sleeping all day, Jane Mo was not sleepy at all. She simply took her mobile phone and came over... There was a text message on it. Open it. It''s Li Xiaoyue who asked if he saw Chu Zixiao. Jane Mo calmly replied to the text message: she suddenly had a fever and didn''t go. Li Xiaoyue quickly came back: are you seriously ill? Jane Mo: the doctor said there was too much pressure Li Xiaoyue made a disdainful expression: girl, have you ever thought that even if you hide today, what will happen next? Although Los Angeles is big, Gu Beichen still has a relationship with Chu Zixiao. I''ll see you sooner or later. You can''t avoid the first day of junior high school! Jane Mo is a little agitated and helpless: first avoid the first time Li Xiaoyue can''t bear it: girl, do you still love him? Jian Mo looked at Li Xiaoyue''s question and was silent for a long time. She didn''t know how to answer Li Xiaoyue: forget it, don''t answer. Anyway, you should understand that now you are Gu Beichen''s wife. No matter what you were together for at first, you can''t be with him. Jane Mo: I understand It''s still drizzling outside. It doesn''t rain very much, but it doesn''t stop... In late summer and early autumn, there has always been a lot of rain in Los Angeles, which can''t help but remind Chu Zixiao of Seattle for more than two years. Agreed for three years, he stuck to their love, she waited for him! But in the end? He was sticking to it, but she didn''t wait for him Chu Zixiao took out his cigarette, and the sound of the steel lighter "Dang" cut through the silence. At the same time, the cigarette was lit... He took a breath, spit out smoke, curled and dispersed, and blinded his sight. The mobile phone rang at the right time. Chu Zixiao turned to the house and picked up the mobile phone. He looked at the call and saw that it was Tang Yu... Put the mobile phone in his ear when he picked it up. "The old classmate heard that I came back and made an appointment to get together..." Tang Yu''s voice was filled with ruffian spirit, "just this Friday night, heaven night." Chapter 19 Jian Mo came suddenly and walked quickly... According to Li Xiaoyue, she was completely scared out. The next day, the rain in Los Angeles still didn''t stop. When Jian Mo woke up, Gu Beichen was no longer in the villa... She went to the company after washing and cleaning up. Seeing her haggard face, everyone cared about her one by one Xiang night gossiped. After everyone cared, she followed Jian Mo into the design room. "Sister Mo, who answered the phone last night... That voice was very good." She lay on her desk. "Is it your boyfriend?" Jane Mo frowned slightly and listened to Xiang night. When she was asleep, Gu Beichen answered her phone? "A friend..." Jane Mo said casually, "there is nothing to recommend except the voice. If you want me to introduce you, make an appointment." "..." Xiang Wan twitched at the corners of his mouth and was disappointed in his eyes. "Sister Mo, don''t be too stressed... You''ve made yourself sick." Jane Mo looked at the evening and didn''t understand what she meant "What the man said..." Jane Mo doesn''t know what to say... Gu Beichen, such an indifferent person, will explain why she is ill? At this moment, Jane Mo doesn''t know that the person who answered the phone yesterday was not Gu Beichen, but Xiao Jing. The mobile phone suddenly rang, and Jane Mo answered, "director?" "You come to my office..." "OK." Jian Mo''s voice is still a little hoarse. After arriving at Tang Haoyang''s office, he will naturally be booed. "Mr. Yu heard that you are ill under great pressure, so he said that the club would put it on hold..." Tang Haoyang''s voice was obviously soothing. As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she felt a blessing in disguise However, she was not happy for a few seconds. A thunderbolt made her want to rush into the director''s office and punch him. "Chu Zixiao just returned home and opened a law firm. It''s just that you turn around and take someone to have a look..." Tang Haoyang took out a business card and handed it to Jian mo. "Chu Zixiao has a great influence. If the design is unique, we can expose our design when the media interviews the new law firm..." Jian Mo looked at the name on the business card and couldn''t hear Tang Haoyang''s words She was a little short of breath and quickly looked up and said, "director, I still want to try the emperor''s Club... Let others follow up this law firm?" Tang Haoyang was slightly stunned. "But others have several projects to follow..." he thought that Jian Mo didn''t admit defeat and didn''t think much. "Besides, you and I on the emperor''s side know that if you want to participate in the comparison, the scale of our company can''t enter the emperor''s eyes." Jane Mo just felt suffocated... It was like God had to drag her and make a joke with her. After hearing about this, Li Xiaoyue had some impulse to laugh, but she didn''t sprinkle salt on her friend''s heart. "Girl, when talking about design, you don''t have to meet and talk. If you want to avoid it, you don''t have no chance." Of course Jane Mo knows, but she always feels that she has no bottom in her heart. It''s like there''s something going on. There''s no chance to hide. My mind is full of plans for Chu Zixiao law firm, which is confused with my past memory... In addition, the fever has gone away, but I still have a cold. Jane Mo has been in a muddle all day. Back to lanzeyuan after work, Gu Beichen''s car was... Jian Mo was a little surprised! After entering the villa, there was no one on the first floor. Jian Mo looked at the study door with his eyes open. Thinking that he was busy, he simply changed his home clothes and went to the kitchen. Three dishes and one soup, steamed rice... Gu Beichen just went downstairs when he brought out the soup. "Just... Ready for dinner!" When Jian Mo greets Gu Beichen, he always smiles with a flattering but not boring smile. She is beautiful, especially those eyes that bend slightly with a smile, especially bright... Gu Beichen is always distracted every time he sees Jian Mo''s smiling eyes. From the beginning, Jane Mo felt strange and got used to it. She just thought he thought her eyes were particularly in his eyes. "Are you feeling better?" Gu Beichen asked casually. "Much better..." Jane nodded with a big smile. "It''s hard to think well with your care!" Gu Beichen said "well", and he didn''t know whether to agree with Jian Mo''s flattery or answer her about her body. After dinner, Gu Beichen went to the study again to be busy... After Jane Mo cleaned up, she went upstairs to take a bath and went to bed. Because Chu Zixiao was in a bad mood and his body was more or less tired, he didn''t have the mind to please Gu Beichen... Jian Mo directly turned off the light and went to bed. In a daze, she felt that her body had been fished into a strong arm... Jane Mo was confused and didn''t think about it seriously, so she fell asleep. Wake up the next day, familiar embrace, familiar breath "Good morning..." Jian Mo''s voice was full of energy, showing the early morning bleary and hoarse after the illness. Gu Beichen opened his eyes and looked at Jian Mo deeply. Although the wife took it back for a purpose, I have to say that every time she woke up in his arms and said good morning to him, he was in a good mood. "Good morning!" Gu Beichen suddenly turned over and pressed Jian Mo under him. "I let you go last night. It seems that we can only exercise in the morning." Jane Mo doesn''t have to think about what the so-called "morning exercise" is "Are you willing to be weak after illness?" Jane Mo put her arms around Gu Beichen''s neck and said pitifully, but there was an invitation in her tantalizing eyes. Gu Beichen smiled with evil charm, "sweating in sports is to help you recover..." he said, and he had raised Jian Mo''s nightdress rudely The two people are familiar with each other''s bodies, so that Jian Mo often thinks... Gu Beichen is actually a good husband. At least, he can solve physiology without giving money and spend money! I have to say something bad... It can only be that this person is Chu Zixiao''s little uncle, so that she leads a messy life in the next life. Chapter 20 On Friday, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo left after doing "morning exercise" and didn''t come back for two days. Jane Mo basically relies on gossip newspapers and magazines to know her husband''s news... No, her husband has made headlines again. I saw a picture of Gu Beichen and a new model on the front page of the newspaper. It''s very ambiguous from the perspective The words below are full of imaginative words. No doubt, the media speculated that this new model would replace Lu man in Gu Beichen''s position. Naturally, the conclusion of the report will not let go of the mysterious Mrs. Gu, saying, "my husband is in the red gossip headlines again, Mrs. Gu, what do you think?" The question immediately became the topic of leisure talk in the office. In his ears, several people led by Xiang night are arguing about who is the threat of Mrs. Gu between landing man and the model. Jian Mo looks at the crowd and feels like someone outside the door is looking at someone inside the door. Just as everyone was arguing, Da Xiong came over and said, "Mo, are you busy tonight?" Jane Mo didn''t think, "there''s no accident... What''s the matter?" There is no accident. Naturally, it is someone''s temporary call. Da Xiong''s voice was hesitant, and then he smiled foolishly, "today is Xiaoya''s birthday. I think we haven''t got together for a long time, so we''ll get a source... We''ll have dinner first in the evening, and then go to heaven night." Jian Mo chuckled. The whole engineering design department knew that Da Xiong was chasing Mo Xiaoya... For a time, Ding Dang was crying. What about the CP match? Isn''t it appropriate for Da Xiong to chase Ding Dang? Mo Xiaoya, who has always been the queen fan''er, doesn''t catch a cold about such jokes, but da Xiong is afraid of her misunderstanding and often explains... There are a lot of jokes. "Heaven night..." Jane Mo deliberately lengthened her voice, "you are really a big hand!" Da Xiong "hey hey" smiled, looked at Mo Xiaoya''s absence from the office, and just said, "actually... I''m going to officially ask for contacts tonight." On hearing this, Jane Mo smiled and said, "if it''s like this... I have to push my brothers and sisters. I''ll cheer you up." "Yes!" Da Xiong was obviously excited, and then informed everyone about celebrating Mo Xiaoya''s birthday in the evening. After work, the whole engineering department drove to the cafeteria and planned to eat casually and then go to heaven night. Just before the meal, Jane Mo''s mobile phone rang... Mr. G! Jane Mo took her cell phone and answered the phone, "ah Chen..." When Gu Beichen heard that the environment was very noisy, he frowned slightly and asked, "where is it?" "Colleagues have a birthday and are having dinner." Xu Shi also felt Da Xiong''s excitement, and Jian Mo was also very happy. "Have you had dinner?" Gu Beichen asked briefly. "Another colleague wants to confess to his birthday colleague... It''s estimated that it will be late in the evening." After telling the truth, Jane Mo asked, "what are you... Doing?" "I haven''t finished work yet." Gu Beichen sat down on the sofa of lanzeyuan villa with a gloomy face, "where are you going in the evening?" "Heaven night..." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, "are you going to pick you up in the evening?" "No, I''ll take a taxi back..." "OK." Gu Beichen hung up after saying that. Jane Mo hung up without much thought. After dinner, we drove directly to paradise night... As a famous entertainment place in Los Angeles, the luxurious decoration and magnificent facilities doomed the consumption here to be not low. Da Xiong asked for a luxury bag, because everyone was too familiar. People soon went crazy Jane Mo knows the inside story and others don''t. She also knows that Da Xiong must do something for such a big treat today. Heaven night, after this night, you have to go in for more than half of your monthly salary. "Wait a minute. What do you think if Da Xiong really moves?" Jane Mo found a chance to rub against Mo Xiaoya and asked curiously. Mo Xiaoya is twenty-five this year. Da Xiong is twenty-seven. Two people are suitable at the age of twenty-seven. The conditions are also good in all aspects. If marriage is the premise, there is a play in every way. "Mo, what do you mean by love?" Mo Xiaoya suddenly felt a little sad. Mo Xiaoya in Jian Mo''s cognition has always been a very calm person. Such sadness seems not to belong to her. "Love is... The most romantic thing is to have that person around all the time." Mo Xiaoya looked at Jian Mo, "do you have that man?" Jane Mo smiled astringently, "once..." Mo Xiaoya didn''t ask again when she felt the faint sadness overflowing on Jian mo. she didn''t like to peep into the secrets of others. "I''ve never been so personal..." she laughed at herself. "I said I didn''t have a boyfriend, and everyone didn''t believe it, but I haven''t been since I went to school. Some people say I have a high vision. In fact, I just want to find a heart..." "Is that your heart?" Asked Jane mo. Mo Xiaoya shook her head, "he is a suitable person to get along with, but not my heart..." "Then you promised him to toss tonight?" Jane frowned. "If you don''t embarrass him, he won''t retreat..." Mo Xiaoya sighed helplessly. Jane Mo understands Mo Xiaoya''s meaning, but she thinks it''s too cruel to Da Xiong... But in this world, although feelings are the best thing, who can say that feelings are not the most cruel when they backfire? Jane Mo was in a good mood and was sad. Looking at her colleagues who were still laughing, she suddenly thought of her previous school days "Sister Mo, what song do you sing? I''ll give you some." Holding the microphone at night, he began to raise his voice. Jane Mo shook her head and smiled at the corners of her mouth. "Order first. I''ll go to the bathroom." She urgently needs to escape from such a lively atmosphere for fear of revealing the sadness of the city of memory. However, if Jane Mo has a prediction, she will not escape so quickly. At least... When she orders a song, maybe she won''t meet that person so quickly around the corner. Chu Zixiao stood in the same place. His deep eyes like the sea could not see happiness and anger under the light. He just looked at Jian Mo lightly, as if he were a stranger... But his hatred for the stranger gradually overflowed from the bottom of his eyes. Jane Mo''s whole body was frozen there. She didn''t know how to face the sudden encounter... Just for a moment, her nose was sour and her heart hurt. He was wearing a light blue shirt and beige casual trousers, and his decent tailoring reflected his posture like a famous model. Junya''s face has a thin emotion and alienation. A pair of eyes are clear and soft, but deep like the sea, which makes people can''t see to the end... Just like him in memory! Chu Zixiao''s eyes narrowed slightly, and then he walked towards Jian mo... his steps were slow and steady, as if he deliberately wanted to cause a psychological burden to Jian mo. It''s clearly a distance of more than ten steps, which makes Jian Mo feel that she has been walked out by Chu Zixiao for a century Chapter 21 Chu Zixiao has preset many kinds of pictures of meeting Jian mo... Some are on the campus of Luoda at a certain time, some encounter on the street, or he finds her out of his mind. But there is no such chance, or... Their meeting is actually only such chance. What should I say in the first sentence? question? Miss? Or... Don''t know what to say? The step stopped in front of Jian Mo, and the sadness and anger that had been dormant for two years appeared in his condescending vision... All the presuppositions became ridiculous at this moment. At the moment, he just wanted to think that nothing had happened. He still guarded their love, and she was waiting for her. Jane Mo suppressed the surging waves in her heart, restrained the sadness and pulled the corners of her mouth, so she pretended to be an old friend and said hello, "when did you come back?" Chu Zixiao''s eyes were cold for a moment, and there was an unspeakable irony on the indifferent and alienated Jun''s face, "I always think, when I return home... What will you say to me in the first sentence?" Jane Mo''s heart trembled, and even her long eyelashes trembled... But she didn''t dare to reveal any sadness, so she could only laugh. Even if, that kind of smile is very ugly! "I expected a lot... But I was not so calm." Chu Zixiao''s beautiful rhombic lip was mocked, but he didn''t know whether to laugh at himself or Jian mo. "Jane Mo, how can you be so cruel?" Chu Zixiao''s voice was very light, and the end of the words was shallow and lightly raised a cold radian. A pair of deep eyes like the sea looked at her coldly. Jane Mo''s heart seemed to be grabbed by someone, and the pain was suffocating. Continuing to pull the corners of her mouth, Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at Chu Zixiao, "cruel?" She sniffed and said coldly, "I''ve never been a good man." Chu Zixiao''s eyes cracked and gradually condensed into lingering anger Suddenly, as soon as he grabbed Jian Mo''s shoulder blade, he put her against the wall, and his eyes firmly coagulated her, "what about waiting? Why, why give up..." Jane Mo''s heart was cut open again, and she was bleeding in an instant... Her eyelashes trembled and tried to cover the dense moisture. She just picked her eyebrows and said, "I''m tired and don''t want to wait." Such indifference made Chu Zixiao''s calmness originally trained over the years disintegrate in an instant... He thought he would see her again. He could try to face it calmly and ask the reason. But, no... he couldn''t see her indifference at all, and he couldn''t ignore the distance between them. "Oh, tired?" When will Zi Mo be tired of waiting His words clenched his teeth, and every word seemed to be squeezed out of his teeth. Because he was angry, Chu Zixiao pressed Jian Mo with a strong hand. Jian Mo frowned slightly in pain, but didn''t say a word. He just said coldly, "what answer do you want to hear?" There was provocation in her voice. In the past, they never talked too much... They just stayed together quietly and felt happy. Li Xiaoyue always asks them if they are bored, but how can they be bored? With a look in each other''s eyes, they already know each other''s meaning... Just like at the moment, Jian Mo knows what Chu Zixiao wants to ask. "Why break up..." Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo''s indifferent eyes and lost his armor. Jian Mo''s heart was astringent, but she just said calmly: "because she fell in love with others..." "I don''t believe it!" Chu Zixiao clenched his teeth and squeezed out three words. The anger from his eyes and the crazy lion were ready to devour the surrounding prey at any time. Jane Mo suddenly pushed Chu Zixiao away. She didn''t know whether it was because she was too strong or because he was shaking for a moment. She pushed her away. "Believe it or not... Chu Zixiao, it''s too tired to wait." Jian Mo''s eyes on him were very clear. "I thought I could do it, but I couldn''t... waiting made me lose confidence. I don''t think it''s love anymore." Chu Zixiao''s eyes slightly narrowed at Jian Mo, like the sea. The deep ink pupil showed a sharp penetrating heart, "you lie!" "If this can comfort you, think so..." Jane Mo said coldly, turned and walked towards the bathroom. However, the talent turned around and was grabbed by Chu Zixiao "Jian Mo, I''m back..." Chu Zixiao''s voice suddenly became a little humble. "Don''t wait, I won''t go... Let''s start from scratch, OK?" Just for a moment, Jane Mo''s eyes turned red. "Jane Mo, what I want to see at the moment you turn around is me... Shall we socialize?" When the Wutong flower blooms, the man wearing a casual white shirt and beige trousers is holding her wrist lightly and opening, and the fundus is full of smile, which seems to be stained with Wutong flower. Now, the same sentence "good or bad" is like the sadness under the dark night... Trying to break through the darkness is like walking to the edge of a cliff. The eyelashes trembled slightly and fell wet, winding on the cheeks... And finally fainted at the corners of the mouth. "If you don''t love, how can you start?" While Jane Mo said this sentence, tears seemed to flow. She was so cold that she pulled out her wrists and walked to the bathroom. She dared not slow down for fear that all the disguises would collapse in front of Chu Zixiao Tears fell as if the dike had burst at the moment of entering the bathroom. There are two women in the bathroom who are mending their makeup. When they see Jane Mo, they are confused and stunned at first. Then they look at each other and take things away In this world, there are too many dog blood stories anytime and anywhere. In the eyes of those two women, Jane Mo was just dumped or bullied by men. The cold water kept scouring her cheeks. Jane Mo had already been unable to tell whether it was water or tears... Such pain made her suffocate and unable to breathe. I don''t know how long it took, Xu was tired of crying, and Xu''s psychological construction had been improved... Jian Mo wiped away the tears and water marks on her face, took a deep breath for several times, and then went out of the bathroom with an unbearable mood of sadness. But the talent went out, and suddenly his arm was grabbed by the strong way. Before Jian Mo reacted, the person had been thrown to the side of the intersecting aisle. At the right moment, Gu Beichen, Long Xiao and others came from another corridor... He walked to the exclusive box in the deep corridor with steady steps. Jian Mo looked at Chu Zixiao, whose eyes showed a fierce light, and wanted to push away his clamp... But he was mercilessly against her roaring lips with a lightning speed. This is not a kiss. He is like a crazy beast, gnawing at her fiercely. Despite her resistance, his lips and tongue occupied the beauty of her mouth with madness "Well..." Jian Mo put her hands against Chu Zixiao''s chest and tried to push him away, but her strength couldn''t push him away at all under his strong resistance. "Why did the third brother suddenly remember to invite me to heaven night today?" At the right time, Lin Nan''s voice came jokingly. Jane Mo instantly widened her eyes and forgot her reaction Chapter 22 The footsteps are getting closer and closer. In this case, Jian Mo doesn''t know how to deal with the possible situation of Gu Beichen. Kissing his nephew in public... Even if it''s not voluntary, she can feel what she''s going to face. Jane Mo closed her eyes and forgot to resist slightly. Even, it felt that she had forgotten her feelings in Chu Zixiao''s overbearing request Chu Zixiao is happy, and Jian Mo''s action is undoubtedly persistent in his mind... He is so excited that he deepens the kiss that he doesn''t care about the footsteps behind him. Lin Nan whistled angrily... Because men''s height completely covered women''s figure, and their angle could not see who men and women were. On occasions like paradise night, such kissing is not surprising The Dragon owl''s face was indifferent, but he just slipped coldly. Li Yunze hooked up the evil spirit at the corner of his mouth, but he didn''t go to see it... Gu Beichen was absent-minded and only said that Yu smooth passed indifferently. Suddenly, my thoughts stagnated slightly. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep, but it was only in a flash that he recovered his calm. "Boring..." this is the answer to Lin Nannan''s question just now. After busy today, I went back to lanzeyuan early... But when it was almost time, Jian Mo didn''t go back. There was some loss in his heart. Gu Beichen didn''t think deeply about it. He just thought that someone was waiting every time he came back. This time, he wasn''t used to it. After calling, I heard that she and her colleagues came to heaven night, but they couldn''t sit still at home. I asked them to come too... I thought I could pick her up when I finished playing. Gu Beichen didn''t think about why he acted like this... He just lied to her in the company at that time and felt a little childish and ridiculous. The steps have gone far. Jian Mo wants to push Chu Zixiao away, but he still has no way to be imprisoned by him She stared at her angry eyes and used her strength fiercely. Blood stains spread between each other''s mouths, and the sweet smell makes people sick Jian Mo took advantage of Chu Zixiao''s slight distraction and pushed him away with a strong way. A pair of eyes looked coldly at him who had lost his calmness. "If the media and your customers see that you have lost your calmness, the news must be wonderful." Indifferent words are not half nostalgic, some are just cynical. Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo in amazement, as if she didn''t think her mouth would be so poisonous... Just now, it''s clear that she is also eager for him, isn''t she? Jian Mo doesn''t want to stay. Gu Beichen comes to heaven night, and Chu Zixiao loses her calmness... She doesn''t want to make the messy situation more chaotic. Chu Zixiao smiled. The smile was stiff at the corners of his mouth and didn''t reach the bottom of his eyes. "Foam, you''re so cold-blooded." Jane Mo''s footsteps slightly stagnated, but she just lifted her feet again in an instant... Without saying anything, she left quickly. Pushing the door into the box, Jane Mo looked at the bustling scene inside and suddenly felt that she was a little out of place. Daxiong is in a hurry to ask Mo Xiaoya for contact. Everyone is shouting... No one notices that Jian Mo suddenly comes in. "Agree, agree, agree -" everyone is fooling Mo Xiaoya to agree, and Da Xiong roars his love for her. Jane Mo smiled, but the smile was more ugly than crying Her life is obviously a good one, with a happy family and loving lovers... But why, why is it like this? Quietly went to get the bag and turned around. I didn''t want my sadness to screw up everyone''s atmosphere. "Sister mo..." Xiang night suddenly found Jane Mo who was leaving. "Just now your phone rang... It''s Mr. g." Jane Mo''s heart suddenly "cluttered". Maybe she was guilty because she had done something bad. "Sister Mo, why are your eyes red?" Xiang night''s excited face suddenly showed doubt. "I''m a little uncomfortable..." Jian Mo glanced at the colleagues who were still coaxing in the circle, and the bottom of her eyes showed her guilt for Daxiong. "I''ll go back first, and you''ll tell them later." After the words fell, she didn''t give Xiang night a chance to speak. She had turned and left the box. When Tang Yu saw Chu Zixiao returning to the box, he felt something wrong. Today''s classmate party, we are all people who occupy a seat in the legal and political circles. They have excellent eloquence... Zixiao has something on his mind. He knew that he was even more depressed when asked about he Jianmo. But even so, no one will think more about it when the students have a game. He took an excuse to go out for a breath, but when he came back, his face was bad... As Tang Yu, who had almost grown up together and had the same interests, he knew that something must have happened to him. "What?" Tang Yu took the beer and handed it to Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao took it, looked up and went down half a can, "ah Yu, I met her..." It goes without saying who this "she" is. There is no one but Jian Mo who can make Chu Zixiao lose his calmness. "And then?" Tang Yu asked a little calm. Chu Zixiao just laughed, then raised the beer can, touched Tang Yu unwilling to say more, and then drank the rest "I''ll go first," Chu Zixiao put down the empty can and got up. "You play. My account for tonight." Naturally, the students didn''t want to, so they gave him and Tang Yu a welcome. How can they say to go? "Zixiao, you can''t be a famous debater, so you don''t want to get together with our old classmates?" Li ranxia opened his mouth, and his enchanting Phoenix eyes were slightly picked, shining brightly. Chu Zixiao turned around, and her eyes slipped indifferently. "If a person deliberately pulls her position down, it can only show that she has opened the distance between herself and others from her subconscious mind." Li ranxia''s face changed in an instant... All the people here are from Law School of Luoyang University. Which one is not eloquent and often forces people to a dead corner? But now Chu Zixiao''s obviously merciless words made the whole atmosphere stiff. Tang Yu sighed. Although Zixiao was a little cold, he was also a gentle man. On the way to the airport... Everything has changed since I received the breakup message two years ago. "Zixiao, what''s the matter?" "Yes, I seem to have been very silent today..." "Ah Yu, what''s the situation?" After Chu Zixiao left, the students asked one by one curiously... But Tang Yu could only smile with a shrug. There is a city in the world, which is called love robbery. How many men and women in the world of mortals can escape? Jane Mo stood under the pillar of heaven night, a little tired. Just came out and called Gu Beichen back. I''m afraid he found that he was the one with Chu Zixiao. Fortunately, the man didn''t ask anything. He just said that he arrived at heaven night and went together when it was over Thinking that she had come out and he had just arrived, she said she was a little tired. She went back first and let him play slowly. But he was just silent and said to wait for him at the door and go back together. Jane Mo has been waiting for ten minutes... A little upset. Such impatience comes from the fear that Gu Beichen will encounter Chu Zixiao when he appears. Fortunately, just as the breath was condensing, the black Spyker slowly drove over... Jane Mo almost jumped into the car without thinking. However, because she was too eager, she didn''t notice when she opened the door and the skirt slipped... Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao who just came out of the car became deep in their eyes. Chapter 23 Chu Zixiao stood where he was and watched the black car leave after Jian Mo got on the bus... Although he didn''t really see the car because of the distance and light, he could still see the luxury of the car. What mood surged in my heart, Chu Zixiao''s original gentle and handsome face was gradually covered with a layer of haze When Jian Mo just talked to Gu Beichen, he didn''t feel too much emotion. However, after getting on the bus, he always felt that something was condensing and depressing. I don''t know if it''s because she was in a bad mood. Jane Mo didn''t care. After getting on the car, she looked out of the window The night in the neon twinkling international metropolis of Los Angeles is always intoxicating, so that too many people can''t extricate themselves from the whirlpool of nightlife. Gu Beichen has no half expression on his cold face, which makes people can''t see through his mood at the moment At that moment, if I remember correctly, the woman who kissed the man was wearing the same skirt as Jane mo. "Didn''t you say it would be late for my colleagues'' birthday?" Gu Beichen''s voice was so calm that people couldn''t hear the turbulent undercurrent under the words at the moment. Jane Mo took back her sight, leaned lazily on the seat, looked at Gu Beichen and said, "some uncomfortable..." Haven''t we already talked about this topic on the phone? At a red light, Gu Beichen stopped his car and looked at Jian mo. the surface was as calm as the sea without wind and waves... In fact, the undercurrent had surged. "Ah Chen, you look at me like this. I''m afraid I''ll sink into your Vortex..." Jian Mo''s voice is soft and waxy. Even if she is no longer happy, she has long been used to disguise in front of Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen converged his sight, the green light was on, started the car and continued to drive to lanzeyuan, "what do you want to say to me?" "Huh?" Jane Mo doesn''t understand. Gu Beichen''s thin lips lightly hooked a cold smile, slightly invisible, but Jian Mo found that he saw it clearly. I don''t know if it''s because of a guilty conscience. Jian Mo suddenly thought that Gu Beichen might have seen his kissing with a man However, thinking about Chu Zixiao''s height can completely cover her, and that angle, they are in the dark, Gu Beichen, they are in the light... There is a blind spot in the visual angle. "Want to say..." Jane Mo pursed at the corner of her mouth. "Her husband often depends on gossip news to see it. It''s very frustrating!" "Oh?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and didn''t speak again. Jane Mo is a little unsure of Gu Beichen''s mind at the moment... She is coquettish and charming in ordinary days, and he always looks at it with a smile. I know he knows that she really doesn''t have any points. After all, everyone is a contractual marriage, and no one can really invest in feelings... However, I don''t know why, at this moment, she always feels that there is always a mountain rain coming and the wind is all over the building. Silence! Gu Beichen doesn''t speak, and Jian Mo has something in her heart because of her unexpected encounter with Chu Zixiao. She is not interested in regulating her mood. After arriving at lanzeyuan, Gu Beichen got out of the car, bypassed the front of the car and went to the co driver''s place... Opened the door. Just before Jian Mo reacted, he pulled Jian Mo out in a rude way. Jane Mo sprained her foot before, but it was not completely good. When she was pulled by such a pull, her ankle turned again, and she suddenly felt a tingling nerve on the mat. Gu Beichen didn''t find anything wrong with Jane Mo, but took her into the villa with great strides... He didn''t stop at the living room and went directly to the bedroom on the second floor. "Well" came, and Jian Mo was thrown onto the big bed by Gu Beichen... She wanted to get up reflexively, but her body was bullied by Gu Beichen and pressed back. Jian Mo subconsciously wanted to resist, but when his hands reached Gu Beichen''s chest and faced his deep and bottomless ink pupils, he quickly restrained his strength to push out. "Why, do you want to push me away?" Gu Beichen''s voice is so calm, but there is a force that can''t be ignored. Jane Mo was more and more flustered. She always felt that Gu Beichen was angry because he saw that it was her at that time "How could it?" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and flirtatiously picked the corners of her eyes. Gu Beichen''s cold face was covered with a haze. His big palm directly pulled Jian Mo''s hand to his head... And then kissed it hard. Unlike in the past, although the kiss is overbearing, it shows tenderness. But at this moment, Jian Mo obviously felt the hostility of Gu Beichen and the indifference that engulfed everything under the kiss But Jian Mo didn''t dare to resist, but her cooperation not only didn''t eliminate Gu Beichen''s anger, but also made his plundering mood higher and higher Jane Mo is a little painful, but she doesn''t dare to show it... Gu Beichen today is something she hasn''t seen before. It seems that her pet has been touched by others... Yes, she is not a bed companion or his wife, but his pet at the moment. Jane Mo is a little sad. Once people fall, it doesn''t seem to matter... Lower limit, let it die! "Ah Chen," cried Jane Mo coyly, "you don''t seem to be strong enough today." "Really?" Gu Beichen suddenly stopped and looked at the woman under him with deep eyes, "have a big appetite and can''t be satisfied?" Jian Mo always felt that Gu Beichen was an unfathomable person. Although he got along in private on weekdays, he was a typical bird and rogue. But these can not hide his ruthlessness as the ruler of the imperial group As the outside world knows, Gu Beichen is the overlord in Los Angeles. With a stroke of a pen, how many people are wrapped in corpses in an instant?! Jane Mo put her arms around Gu Beichen''s neck, smiled coquettishly and said with silky eyes, "do you... Want to make more efforts to meet me?" Gu Beichen smiled on one side of his thin lips, and then really tried hard to meet Jian mo What does this woman want to escape? Who is that man? They just stabbed and kissed in the aisle. Oh, I can''t control it. Jian Mo was exhausted after several rounds. At first, she could pick beans. Later, she lost her strength... She had to beg for mercy. "Who just said it wasn''t strong enough?" Gu Beichen teased. Jane Mo hugged him and kissed him on the face, "I was wrong..." "What''s wrong?" Jane Mo was stunned and said softly, "you shouldn''t question your ability to belong to a man." Gu Beichen''s mouth was slightly hooked, and he turned over and pressed Jian Mo under him "I really can''t..." Jane Mo hurriedly begged for mercy. She has been troubled by the pain. If she continues, she will not get out of bed tomorrow. Gu Beichen looked at the poor woman with deep eyes and said slowly, "Jane Mo, there are some things... I can, you can''t, understand?" Chapter 24 Jian Mo''s uncontrollable corners of her mouth twitched. She was sure that Gu Beichen knew that it was her who kissed Chu Zixiao at that time However, she doesn''t know. Does Gu Beichen know that the man is his nephew! I rolled back and forth in my heart, thinking that I probably didn''t know... Otherwise, my wife and my nephew would feel shocked when they kissed in public. "Really overbearing..." Jane Mo lowered her eyes and muttered, looking cute. "Only state officials are allowed to set fire and people are not allowed to light lights." Jane didn''t need to listen to what she said. "Jane Mo, I didn''t talk to other women in my marriage..." Gu Beichen was obviously helpless when he said this. "Huh?" Jane Mo didn''t hear clearly because she was immersed in her own thoughts. She raised her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen innocently and brightly, waiting for him to say it again. However, Gu Beichen didn''t pay attention to her at all. He just turned over and got out of bed. Then he generously asked her to look at his perfect back without wearing anything and went to the bathroom. Alas, although she is an old husband and wife... She is still shy to see such a good figure! However, after such an exciting sunny day, Jane Mo''s tragic discovery that she had no good ankle before began to hurt again... What can I do? Sometimes her stubbornness makes people feel ridiculous. In the middle of the night, Jane Mo was thirsty. I wanted to endure until dawn, but I don''t know why. My voice is like smoking. I can only get up and drink some water. Jane Mo tried her best to make her movements lighter, and didn''t dare to turn on the light When she went down to the ground, her feet hit the force, "hissing" came from a backward suction, and the tingling of her ankle made Jian Mo''s calf cramp... Then she fell gorgeous. However, when she fell, she instinctively wanted to help the bedside table, but unexpectedly, she pulled it onto the wire of the desk lamp, and the desk lamp directly fell down because of her inertia "Well", Jane Mo''s painful eyes were shining with Venus, and her back was hit by the desk lamp. Suddenly, she bared her teeth and wrinkled her whole face. Almost when the sound rang, Gu Beichen woke up. He turned on the other side of the table lamp and saw the table lamp smashed on Jian MO Rolling aside His face was a little black. Gu Beichen turned over and got out of bed. He strode to Jian Mo and squatted down without saying anything. His thin lips pursed and first looked at her back... A big piece of red! "Jane Mo, are you a child? You can fall when you walk?" Gu Beichen seemed to be in a hurry. He picked up Jane Mo in his arms. His tone was not very good. Jane Mo was also wronged. A man who was originally very strong was sour in his nose by Gu Beichen''s loud voice. "Why don''t you turn on the light?" Gu Beichen''s face was still cold. Jian Mo said in a stuffy voice, "I''m afraid to disturb your sleep..." Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at Jian Mo''s grievance... For a moment, his heart seemed to have been in some mood, but he couldn''t catch it quickly. "I didn''t stand firm... Careless." Jane Mo hung her eyes and felt more wronged. "Can''t stand steadily?" Gu Beichen sneered, "isn''t that a child?" In a hurry, Jian Mo looked up and looked at Gu Beichen fiercely. Some loud accusations said, "at that time, you dragged me out of the car, and I sprained my foot..." Jane frowned, because she didn''t need to see Jian Mo''s eyes. If she had sprained at that time, she would have endured it all the time. At this moment, I''m afraid it would be serious. "I sprained my foot. Don''t you know what to say?" Gu Beichen was also angry, "Jane Mo, are you playing with me?" Jane Momo was silent and suddenly felt sad in her heart... No matter how much she whitewashed peace and pretended that she would not hurt or be sad for more than a year, what will happen in the end? It''s all fake! They deceive themselves From the day she knew Chu Zixiao returned home, she had no way to control herself, and even her body''s resistance decreased. Today, I met him unexpectedly on the night of heaven without any precaution... He said to start over, but now, as his little aunt, how can she start over with him? At the thought of this, Jane Mo couldn''t help it any more. She directly let herself red her eyes and filled her eyes with water mist Gu Beichen was silent, but the corners of his mouth were tight, and a pair of obsidian like ink pupils were deep and bottomless. "It hurts?" After a while, Gu Beichen spoke softly. Jane Mo looked at him with tears and didn''t speak... Because the thoughts in her head were a little down. Gu Beichen sighed softly, squatted there like that, took Jian Mo''s feet and put them on his legs, and began to soften her, "this time I didn''t pay attention..." his voice was very weak, so people couldn''t hear his emotion. Because Gu Beichen was massaging her feet, Jane Mo was not used to pulling away... But she just moved and was held down by him. Then I heard him say sorry, which immediately frightened her Gu Beichen is apologizing to her in disguise?! Don''t blame Jane Mo for her surprise. Who is Gu Beichen... That''s a famous man in Los Angeles. Gu''s family is a century old family. In Gu Beichen''s generation, it''s just his son and Gu''s father''s old son... How much aura has he accumulated since he was smart and wise? Such a person, don''t say he didn''t do anything wrong, even if he did something wrong... He will only make that thing a mistake, but he will never apologize. Jane Mo was silent and didn''t take back her feet. She let Gu Beichen massage there... Seriously, it wasn''t very comfortable, but it still hurt. But people''s family Chen is less condescending to rub her ankle. She can''t dislike it without knowing good or bad, can she? Well, let him rub it However, the next day, Jane Mo''s tragic discovery... Not only didn''t reduce the swelling, but even more swollen. Jian Mo and Gu Beichen both looked at the swollen foot like steamed bread. One face twitched and the other was dark... In short, they were not good. "Change your clothes." With a cold face, Gu Beichen took Jian Mo into the dressing room and took a knee length skirt for her. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face and haze. She was dissatisfied... He swollen her feet. How did she feel the opposite? She was dissatisfied, but Jian Mo didn''t dare to say anything. She just changed her skirt Gu Beichen took a thin sweater and put it on Jian Mo, took her directly, went downstairs, and then put her on the Spyker "What are you doing?" Jane was stunned. "Go to the hospital!" Gu Beichen replied coldly. Jane Mo twitched. "It''s just swollen. Just wipe some safflower oil back... I have to go to work." "Today is the weekend!" Gu Beichen got into the car and motioned Jian Mo to fasten her seat belt. "But I have a design to finish today..." "Then ask for leave!" "Ask for leave when you sprain your foot?" Jane Mo is ashamed. Is it too pretentious? She drove last time! "For yourself or me?" Once Gu Beichen made a decision, no one could question it again and again. Obviously, he was more and more unhappy. Jane Mo had no choice but to call the person waiting for her to finalize the draft... Who knows she hasn''t spoken yet, the other party said that she was also going to call her. The child was ill and couldn''t pass today. She simply made an appointment to finalize the draft on Monday. Jane Mo hung up the phone and looked at Gu Beichen with light eyes. "Let''s go..." Gu Beichen started the car, but at this moment, Jane Mo didn''t think of it, but the second sprain of her foot would cause a situation that made her a little embarrassed! Chapter 25 Minkang hospital is very famous in Los Angeles. The medical equipment and medical staff here have always been highly equipped... The industry of Li Yunze''s family. Gu Beichen called Li Yunze before he came. There are already orthopedic attending doctors waiting. Jane Mo moved her body hard, and her left foot was too painful to touch the ground Gu Beichen looked at her stubborn appearance. He wanted to let him hurt her to death... But in the end, he didn''t look on and directly came forward to pick up Jane mo. "Bury your head in my chest..." Gu Beichen walked towards the hospital with a cold and calm voice. "Huh?" Jane Mo didn''t react. Looking at Gu Beichen''s resolute chin, she was a little distracted. Gu Beichen walked slowly without looking at Jian Mo and said: "if you want to make the headlines with me as a gossip woman, you can just keep watching me affectionately..." This information directly frightened Jane Mo, and her head had no time to think. The instinctive reaction had buried her face in Gu Beichen''s arms. Gu Ruo Chen smiled slightly. It''s probably only Jane Mo who will disturb the attending orthopedic doctor of Minkang hospital if she sprains her foot... She can''t help burying her head very low when she sees the negative measurement on the face of the director who is over 50. But fortunately, Gu Beichen was aside. Although the old chief physician was unhappy, he didn''t say anything Let people take a film, the bone is no problem, it is really just sprain...... opened the blood spray and other drugs, and account for the two days can not let the foot force and other related matters left. However, Jian Mo saw the old director''s eyes when he turned around before leaving... Full of dissatisfaction with making a mountain out of a molehill. "I''m in the villa these two days. Don''t go anywhere..." Gu Beichen said with a hammer. "Wait, I''ll let aunt LAN come over." "Don''t bother so much, I don''t need to... Just... Just..." under Gu Beichen''s gloomy eyes, Jian Mo''s last words became weaker and weaker, and finally he had to compromise again. No way, who makes her a good wife in China?! Specifically, I listen to my husband Aunt LAN is from Mrs Gu''s side. She has a gentle temper, so it''s really the best choice for her to come and take care of her for two days. However, Jian Mo thought she didn''t have time to rest for two days... Su Junli''s first draft of the concert hall design has taken shape, and she hasn''t asked him to interview the next matters. And the design scheme of Chu Zixiao law firm... This gives Jian Mo a headache! It was almost 11 o''clock when Gu Beichen returned to emperor group. The previously arranged executive meeting was postponed because he took Jian Mo to the hospital Gu Beichen''s success is not accidental. He works very hard. At least when he works, he rarely acts willfully... Otherwise, the emperor will not increase his annual income share by several points after he takes over. Today, when Gu Beichen called Susan on the phone, she informed her... Executives were shocked that Gu Beichen postponed such an important meeting this morning and inquired one after another. Unfortunately, Susan kept silent... I can''t say that Chen Shao took his wife to the hospital? It''s just a sprained foot... Well, I''m afraid it will scare a bunch of old guys out. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing came in with an SLR camera in his hand, and immediately put the camera in front of Gu Beichen. "People are in the conference room." It''s early to go to the hospital. The main reason for letting Jane Mo cover her face is that in case her face is exposed... Whether they are contracted marriage or not, she doesn''t want to expose her to the public. Naturally, he doesn''t want to. They will be separated sooner or later. He won''t let her go through difficulties in the future. It can be said that he has been trying his best to please his compensation for her after marriage. Minkang hospital is a big hospital in Los Angeles. There are many rich businessmen and stars... Many paparazzi will try their luck there when they can''t find the news This is not, met Gu Beichen early in the morning with his rumored girlfriend to see a doctor?! No, the title will be more sensational... Abortion?! Gu Beichen flipped the camera and looked at it from a very professional paparazzi... It''s hard to squat so early. "Chen Shao, can you handle it directly?" Xiao Jing asked tentatively. In general, grab it, directly delete the memory card, and then warn... Bring it back? Never... Xiao Jing couldn''t catch Gu Beichen''s mind. After Gu Beichen saw it once, he got up with the camera and went straight out... Xiao Jing hurried to follow. Entering the meeting room, the paparazzi was obviously nervous and embarrassed, "Chen, Chen Shao..." "Sit down." A simple word shows a cold domineering spirit, and the momentum of overlooking the world can not be ignored. The paparazzi sat down slightly trembling, but his ass just touched the edge and was ready to get up at any time Gu Beichen took the camera and began to delete it recklessly... But he left two. Xiao Jing and the paparazzi can see Gu Beichen''s actions. One is surprised that he left two, and the other is wailing and following the news They are also very difficult. The wind and the sun follow the news. Fortunately, there is big news. Unfortunately, there is no explosion point for several days... Sometimes it is difficult to keep up, but there is no way to send it. Just like now... The paparazzi is very depressed. He feels that Gu Beichen''s deletion really makes him impulsively want to take back the camera. "It''s not easy for you," Gu Beichen said calmly. "I''ll leave you two... Some should say, some should not speculate, I don''t like it." The paparazzi was stunned. He didn''t expect Gu Beichen to leave him two... But he was forced to see them. One is too far away, the other is to enter the elevator, leaving only the back. From beginning to end, what can be seen is Gu Beichen, and the heroine can only vaguely see up to one-fifth of her side face because of her tricky angle, except for her slender white legs and long black hair. But something is better than nothing... The paparazzi is grateful and frankly knows how to write. It''s very simple, just guess... But there''s no talk about taking women to abortion. Gu Beichen lit a cigarette and stood in front of the French window, overlooking the rows of buildings in Los Angeles. His eyes are far-reaching and people can''t see to the end He has no love for Jianmo and knows that Jianmo has no love for him... A woman only loves money and has been very appropriate for more than a year. Every time she gives her diamond jewelry, it is her happiest time. She often takes the initiative to make him angry. I can''t say how clean he is about love, but... He''s not happy that she kissed so recklessly with other men! If you don''t give her some small lessons, you obviously won''t know convergence Thinking of this, Gu Beichen twisted out the cigarette butts in the ashtray on the small table. He was so strong that he broke the cigarette directly. At the right time, the mobile phone was "buzzing" on the table. He turned to get the mobile phone, looked at the call, picked it up and put it in his ear "Beichen, mom asked me to ask you if you have time to take your little aunt to dinner in Lishan tonight?" In the mobile phone, Chu Zixiao heard a lazy voice. When he shouted "little aunt", he obviously smiled. Chapter 26 "Not these two days..." Gu Beichen said faintly, and there was an obvious smile in his voice. "I''m a little busy." Chu Zixiao raised his eyebrows. "Beichen, I''ve been back for three days... We haven''t met yet." He paused slightly and then said, "I haven''t seen who the little aunt is." Because he is only four years old, Chu Zixiao doesn''t call Gu Beichen "little uncle" on weekdays. He usually calls his name directly... Therefore, when he calls "little aunt", there is a greater element of banter. "I''m afraid I won''t see you in the north corner..." anyway, I''m afraid I won''t see you. " Chu Zixiao walked on the road outside Lishan villa with his pocket in one hand. The maple leaves on both sides of the road have gradually begun to turn red. "It''s also..." he said with ease, "if I don''t see you in these two days, I''m afraid it''s going to be delayed..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen is light. "Professor er from Luoyang University asked me to give a few classes, but I can''t push... Ah Yu''s office and I have to prepare for it, and I''m estimated to be a little busy these days." Chu Zixiao said with a light smile that for his little uncle, he habitually reported what he wanted to do to him. In fact, he really didn''t care about things in Los Angeles in the past two years... He heard about Beichen''s marriage, but he never asked who it was, as if the little aunt was not welcome, and no one offered to mention it to him. Today''s wind exploration clearly confirmed his idea But think about it. It''s also because grandpa Tai put his shares in Grandpa 2. It''s normal not to see him. After a few more words, Gu Beichen was a little busy, and Chu Zixiao hung up Suddenly, he stood on a strange platform overlooking the whole city of Los Angeles. That kind of strangeness is not the change of scenery, but people Jian Mo sat on the deck chair on the terrace, quietly looking at the floating clouds in the sky, and gradually lost his mind... His brain seemed to be out of control. As long as it precipitated, he would slip past the accidental meeting with Chu Zixiao on heaven night last night. As Xiao Yue said, she escaped the first day of junior high school and could not escape the fifteenth day. Just thinking, the mobile phone rang, disturbing the wrinkles of the lake water in Jianmo''s mood Li Xiaoyue called and said, "I heard you met Chu Zixiao last night?" The news is so fast... Jane Mo smiled astringently. "Well, my colleague celebrated his birthday in heaven night, and he was there..." Jane Mo lowered her eyes. Although she knew that no one saw it, she subconsciously collected the sadness at the bottom of her eyes. Li Xiaoyue was silent. She didn''t expect such a bloody bridge, "what do you say?" "What else can I say?" Jian Mo''s tone showed self mocking sadness, "Xiao Yue, after yesterday, I don''t think it''s terrible to meet again... What''s terrible is if he knows that the person I married is his little uncle." Li Xiaoyue is silent At the beginning, several people who had a good relationship knew that Chu Zixiao had a little uncle who was about the same age and only four years older... He adored him very much. In fact, some things are really dog blood... Everyone knows the existence of my little uncle, but no one has asked my little uncle''s name! After all, thinking there is no intersection, asking so clearly seems to be checking the account "But I''ll see you sooner or later," sighed Li Xiaoyue. "Unless you and Gu Beichen divorce now." Jane Mo was laughing, still laughing at herself, "unrealistic..." Contracts are unequal. No, it should be said that each takes what he needs. However, there is one thing, divorce Jianmo can''t be mentioned, only Gu Beichen can. "How did you know I met him yesterday?" Jane foam suddenly light EH. Li Xiaoyue sighed, "Chu Zixiao and Tang Yu are going to open an office. Today, I passed by the place where they selected the site, and Tang Yu asked me what happened that year. Why did you suddenly break up with Chu Zixiao?" "How do you answer?" "How else can you answer?" Li Xiaoyue was a little angry. "If you fall in love with others and don''t love him, you can divide them... We adults are not teenagers, but also entangled." Jane Mo is astringent, but her best friend is not a liar... She knows her mind without colluding. The ankle sprained and needed to please Gu Beichen. Chu Zixiao''s unexpected meeting undoubtedly added several things together, which made Jian Mo''s time alone a little sad. She is not a muddle headed person, unfortunately, emotional things... She is just a layman. Knowing that it''s one thing to keep a distance with Chu Zixiao, but it''s another thing to feel uncomfortable. After the weekend with a sad heart and a tingling ankle, when she went to work on Monday, Jian Mo''s feet had been swollen a lot. Thanks to Aunt Lan''s massage, it was much more reliable than Gu Beichen. "Sister Mo, why can''t you walk again?" Looking at Jane''s limping appearance in the evening, he asked curiously. Jian Mo sighed, sat down in the chair and turned on the computer. "By the way, did Da Xiong succeed that night?" As soon as Xiang Wanyi listened, he first looked outside the glass door, then closed the door and leaned in front of Jian Mo, "no... everyone played very much. Finally, sister Xiaoya didn''t promise, which made the scene very embarrassing." As she said this, she turned her mouth and said, "I knew I had left with sister mo." Hearing Xiang night''s subconscious anger, Jian Mo just smiled, "emotional things can''t be forced... If Xiaoya agrees, it''s irresponsible to Da Xiong." "Eh?" Xiang night was a little surprised, "sister Mo, do you know the inside story?" "What do I know?" Jane Mo smiled. "I just think Xiaoya refused. Although it embarrassed Da Xiong, it''s better to separate after getting along." Xiang Wan disagreed. "Then you can refuse before... It''s very ambiguous. Besides, everyone knows that Da Xiong''s love is big. But in the end? Even if you don''t appreciate it, you still refuse in front of so many people." Jane Mo looked at the corner of her mouth and slightly hooked it. That smile was too astringent... She was very old, yearning for love and resentful about dissatisfaction. But Jane Mo forgot. In fact, she is only less than two years older than Xiang wan... But she feels that her heart is old. "Xiaoya has her own plan," Jian Mo said with an eyebrow. "This money Xiaoya won''t let big male flowers." Xiangwan''s eyes lit up. "Sister Mo, how do you know? We don''t know when sister Xiaoya settled the bill. Anyway... It was embarrassing in the end. She left and everyone was not interested in playing again. When Da Xiong went to check out, he said he had already settled it." Jane Mo just smiled and didn''t answer... She still knows who Mo Xiaoya is. In fact, the whole engineering design department is very good, there is no intrigue, and the competition is also benign. When I looked back at the computer, I picked up the cup and drank. Then my eyes fell on the daily news box. There was a red news Before she could swallow the saliva, she was choked by the title and coughed violently... It was not easy to resist the cough. She quickly opened the title and looked up and wrote: Gu Beichen had a new love again and took him to the hospital. His tenderness exceeded that of previous years! Not only that, there are two photos... One is Gu Beichen''s eyes, his face is slightly chilly and worried, and the back of the female owner''s little bird snuggling in his arms. No matter which one, it is enough to let Jane Mo immediately reflect the thrill of the roller coaster! Chapter 27 "Sister mo..." seeing Jane Mo coughing all the time in the evening, she skimmed her lips and said, "what news scares you like this?" Then she leaned over to the computer screen and said, "this news has been hanging for two days, and it''s still being pushed!" "Cough... Cough..." Jian Mo choked heavily by the water. Looking at the picture of his back and remembering Gu Beichen''s words that morning, he suddenly felt that the man was too prescient. Holding his chin in his hand, Xiang night immediately said with a gossip nature: "sister mo... You don''t know how powerful the follow-up news is. Someone said he saw it in the hospital that day and said that the woman Chen Shao held went to orthopedics." Jane Mo''s breath just calmed was a little twitching. Xiang night suddenly brightened his eyes, "the human flesh is too powerful now... The woman who said she was seeking medical treatment sent out the attending doctor, and she just sprained her foot for a long time." Jane Mo''s mood is a little complicated "Eh?" Xiang night suddenly gave a light sigh, slowly turned his head and looked at Jian Mo, with a mysterious face, "sister Mo, you... Seem to have sprained your foot..." "Poof..." a mouthful of water that had just entered her mouth gushed out when she had no time to swallow it. Jian Mo vowed not to drink water even if she was thirsty today. "Don''t introduce..." I choked when I saw Jane Mo at night. While giving her luck, I joked with the spirit, "sister Mo, look, your foot is also sprained, and the heroine is also sprained. It''s not too much for us to fantasize. Don''t be so excited, aren''t you?" Jane Mo glanced at the night angrily and felt that if she continued to pull with the girl, she would lose half her life. "You help me send this to sister su..." she took out a home decoration design drawing drawn at the weekend from her bag, "thank you." Xiang night also smiled and looked at Jian Mo, but she didn''t continue to nod jokingly and take off... In fact, if she was careful enough, she could remember that Jian Mo wore that skirt one day last week. However, Jane Mo felt that she would never wear that skirt again in case of human flesh! Jian Mo looks at the computer screen again... Click to enlarge the picture. The distance between the front and back is a little long. According to the characteristics of the paparazzi, it is impossible not to take the picture at such a long interval. Jane Mo is not a fool. On the contrary, she is very smart! Gu Beichen saw himself kissing a man the night before. First, whether it was forced or voluntary... He went to the hospital the next day. He also specifically reminded her to avoid reporters, but what happened in the end? Jian Mo is a little angry, which makes it clear that Gu Beichen is intentional But on second thought, what right does she have to be angry? To put it mildly, she and he are in a contractual marriage, and she is that low-profile. Gu Beichen can spread gossip, but she can''t... Oh, no, she didn''t. instead, she kissed another man directly in front of him, or his nephew! Jian Mo closed the news page after sipping the lower lip corner, then took the design drawing of the first draft of the concert hall to scan and sent it to Su Junli... If he thinks the design idea is OK, she will continue to improve and strive to win the design of the concert hall. When Su Junli replied that it was almost noon, Jian Mo smiled when he said the design was novel... No one didn''t like to be praised. "Mo Mo, the director asked me to ask you if you have contacted Chu Zixiao law firm?" Sun Ke, the office assistant of the design department, asked. Jane Mo has a headache, but she knows it can''t escape... Fortunately, she met unexpectedly on Friday night. Now she doesn''t need to tangle with the plot of meeting again. However, when meeting Chu Zixiao, Jane Mo had more or less resistance in her heart. Sun Ke came over. "The director said that if Su Jun had hope from there, Chu Zixiao would let Ding Dang follow up first." Jane Mo pondered slightly, "OK..." However, Jian Mo didn''t expect that Chu Zixiao, who argued skillfully in court and was gentle in private, would make it so difficult when he had handed over the design to Xiangyu. Ding Dang suffered a cold face for two days, and his heart almost collapsed. "Sorry, we want to..." Tang Yu gestured, meaning to close the door and motioned Ding Dang to leave. Ding Dang looked at the man who didn''t know what he was writing on a temporary simple table and pursed his lips. "Chu debate, we always have to listen to your ideas first, so that our designers can give better play to what you want..." Chu Zixiao didn''t look up, but turned the paper. Tang Yu looked back at his friend, sighed secretly, and said, "you''re not the main design this time. Zixiao just thinks it''s better to talk with the main design..." after a slight meal, he may have been joking to ease the atmosphere, "not specifically for you." When Ding Dang left with a sense of frustration, she suddenly realized why many people don''t like to talk to lawyers... They always leave you with new problems that you can''t refuse in their ordinary words. "What are you doing?" Tang Yu poured a glass of water and put it in front of Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were slightly restrained and coldly hooked his lips, "wait for her to come..." Tang Yu sighed and didn''t know how to say "what if she doesn''t come? If she wants to avoid you, she doesn''t have to take the design of our law firm." Sometimes it doesn''t work if you don''t believe in fate. Tang Yu didn''t expect that Jian Mo would work under his uncle... Zixiao had to hand over the design to Xiangyu and appointed Jian Mo design. "I have a contract with Xiangyu. If Xiangyu thinks that rejecting this project can win me in the lawsuit..." Chu Zixiao said lightly, then put down the teacup and said, "I''ll see my tutor." "I''ll go with you too..." Tang Yu knew that Chu Zixiao didn''t want to continue this topic, so he also got up. In fact, Zixiao is so persistent, while Jian Mo is so indifferent. He wants to persuade him to let go... But for emotional things, who is deeply trapped is doomed to bad luck. In wangjiangyuan restaurant, Jian Mo asked Li Xiaoyue to have dinner. She urgently needs to find a way to get rid of the effect brought by Chu Zixiao... Otherwise, she will finally hurt others and herself. This is not her original intention. "I think the Huairou policy is useless," Li Xiaoyue gave Jian Mo her favorite boiled fish. "Listen to Tang Yu, Chu Zixiao doesn''t forget you at all... And he came back half a year early because of you!" Jane Mo has a headache. She has been in a mess since the first meeting. If this goes on, she doesn''t know what will happen... The most important thing is that Gu Beichen is the little uncle that the man has always admired. Will he make his family unhappy because of her? Although Jane Mo doesn''t think she has such great ability, she takes precautions, doesn''t she?! In the TV series, there are many drama codes that become hate because of love, and then the brothers turn against each other. She doesn''t think the dog blood is staged in reality, but... She can''t face their uncle and nephew at the same time. "Xiao Yue, is there no way?" Jane froth broke her face. "I don''t want to be caught between them." Li Xiaoyue put down her chopsticks, then wiped her mouth with a napkin on one side, and drank slowly. "In a situation like you, in our legal circles... Procrastination will only be more and more troublesome. If you want to make him die, you have to take strong medicine!" "What medicine?" Jane Mo brightened her eyes with expectation. Li Xiaoyue''s mouth slightly evokes a professional smile, which is shrewd and indifferent at the same time. She said slowly, "it''s very simple. You and Gu Beichen invite his nephew to dinner... Wash the dust!" Li Xiaoyue''s words fell. Immediately, Jian Mo''s face turned black Chapter 28 Li Xiaoyue''s method is natural. Jian Mo doesn''t dare to use it. She can''t even think about that kind of picture. Her heart is trembling... The picture will be "beautiful" and people can''t look directly at it. "I shouldn''t have come to you to discuss it!" Jane Mo stared at Li Xiaoyue angrily. Li Xiaoyue smiled, but this time it was a comfortable smile, "all right, don''t think about it... Soldiers will block the water and cover the earth. Great sisters will cry and get drunk with you for 3000 times!" She said with loyalty. Jane Mo is a little angry. In fact, she knows that Li Xiaoyue is to make her relax... Now in this situation, she can only take one step at a time. After dinner, Li Xiaoyue and Jian Mo went out for a while, and then Jian Mo went back to lanze garden. Jian Mo found a book from Gu Beichen''s study and lay on the bed to look at it, but she didn''t turn a page for a long time. What turned in her mind was the relationship between Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao With a deep sigh, Jian Mo closed the book and put it aside and took her mobile phone. She didn''t know what mentality she was holding to call Gu Beichen, but she just knew that her chest was so stuffy that she wanted to relieve it. "What?" The indifferent voice came from the other side, like a cello playing slowly in the dark night, which makes people forget the years. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo shouted angrily. "Huh?" Gu Beichen slightly picked his eyebrows, and his thin lips slightly hooked a shallow smile, "what''s the matter?" He held his mobile phone in one hand and gently shook the red wine glass in the other hand. He looked at the red wine slowly flowing into the scarlet below on the glass wall without leaving any trace. Jane Mo drooped her eyes and pursed quietly at the corners of her mouth. She wanted to test what would happen if Gu Beichen knew her relationship with Chu Zixiao, but she didn''t know where to test. Gu Beichen was born by a fox. He didn''t know how to die accidentally. After thinking for a while, Jane Mo was still out of breath. She didn''t intend to test, but said softly, "I miss you..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil became deeper and deeper. The smile on the edge of his thin lips reached the bottom of his eyes in an unknown moment, "I''m in blues. Will you come?" "I have to go to work tomorrow. It''s not over..." Jane Mo said lazily. "I just want to express my miss at the moment. I won''t disturb your nightlife." By implication, she''s ending the call. Gu Beichen''s smile deepened, but he reached the bottom of his eyes in an instant. "Zixiao is also there. Come here if you''re not sleepy." Poof Jane Mo was almost choked by her saliva. NIMA, she won''t go back without Chu Zixiao, let alone still?! "Ha ha, have a chance..." Jane Mo smiled very falsely. "That... I went to bed, Ann... Kiss!" After that, she kissed her mobile phone, then quickly hung up the phone and didn''t give Gu Beichen a chance to speak. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Gu Beichen was a little angry and funny. He felt pretty good about his little wife who was five years younger than himself. "Little aunt?" Chu Zixiao made a sound. "Yes." Gu Beichen deserves to be free. Chu Zixiao raised his eyebrows and asked, "come here?" "No......" Gu Beichen replied casually. "Unfortunately, I thought I could see Mrs. Gu in this rumor!" Chu Zixiao finished joking and teasing, so he didn''t continue this topic. His son and Tang Yu went to the tutor''s house before Xialuo University tonight. After dinner, he was depressed and asked Beichen out for a drink. He also talked about his little aunt... But obviously Beichen didn''t want to talk more. I think Beichen should pay little attention to this little aunt, but it seems not... When has Beichen ever been kind to people? Status there, has long formed a cold face. However, he is not a curious person. No matter what the relationship between this little aunt and Beichen is... Let it be! When it''s time to see, it''s always necessary to see and don''t worry. The next day, the weather in Los Angeles became overcast again, and the air was filled with moisture, which was obviously the rhythm of rain. Because Ding Dang didn''t finalize the initial case of Chu Zixiao law firm for two days, Tang Haoyang said that Jian Mo could only harden his scalp After signing a contract with Chu Zixiao, he has the right to appoint someone from Xiangyu''s design department to design the law firm. If Xiangyu can''t perform according to the contract... It''s obviously a rhythm of looking for death under a lawyer and a famous defense. "OK, I''ll go there now." Jane Mo spoke quietly. Tang Haoyang nodded. "Let Ding Dang go with you. Just recently, she has a similar project in her hand." Jane nodded, cleared up her mood, drove to the location of the law firm. Chu Zixiao and Tang Yu''s new law firm is located in a street store near the CBD business district of the third ring road. The new house has not been hung... But it is said that some people have come to him to file a lawsuit, and a lot of cases have been piled up. Jane Mo parked the car in the parking space and looked through the window... Stage fright. But think about it. Now everyone is hiding in Los Angeles. It''s impossible. This level will pass sooner or later. When she got out of the car, Jane Mo listened to Ding Dang''s grievances and mutters these two days, and pulled at the corners of her mouth... No matter what psychological fortification was done, when people stood in the law firm, she felt that it was in vain. Tang Yu didn''t expect Jian Mo to appear so soon... After two and a half years away, the woman in front of her is more beautiful. The astringency and tenderness of her student career have faded, and she is more capable in the workplace in a white lined dress... It has nothing to do with the mature charm, but the introverted breath of Jianmo. "Long time no see..." Tang Yu took the lead in opening his mouth. He couldn''t see whether it was alienation, indifference or warm smile. Jane Mo smiled, but obviously said at a distance: "long time no see..." "Mo Mo, do you know each other?" Ding Dang was a little surprised, but then he thought, "Oh, you are all from Luoda." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and asked, "isn''t Chu debate there?" Tang Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth. He didn''t know why Jian Mo moved his feelings and proposed to break up, but now we meet again... A "Chu debate" was too strange and alienated. "Zixiao is looking for the file in the temporary office next door..." Tang Yu said, "look at the house structure first, and then I''ll take you there?" "Good!" Jane Mo answered, and then followed Tang Yu to look around the house with more than 300 square meters on the upper and lower floors. "Let''s talk about the design scheme..." Jane Mo smiled professionally at the corners of her mouth. Tang Yu nodded and went to the temporary office with Jian Mo and Ding Dang. But when they arrived, Chu Zixiao was busy, and Tang Yu could only take them to the reception room first. From ten o''clock to almost twelve o''clock at noon, Chu Zixiao hasn''t finished his work yet... Ding Dang can''t sit still. Jian Mo drinks tea calmly, occasionally chatting with Tang Yu, and then he is silent. When Tang Yu was embarrassed, his mobile phone rang. He picked it up and saw that it was Chu Zixiao''s. after saying "sorry", he went aside and picked it up "Let her come to my office," Chu Zixiao''s voice was so calm that people couldn''t hear the emotion, but showed indisputable indifference, "she''s only allowed to be alone!" Chapter 29 Ding Dang felt that the atmosphere was a little strange. After Tang Yu passed on Chu Zixiao''s words, Jian Mo didn''t move, but gently rubbed the water cup with both hands, and his eyes fell on the tea, as if he hadn''t heard it, but was meditating. Such an atmosphere was a little stiff. Tang Yu didn''t ask for urging. Ding Dang didn''t know what Jane Mo was thinking. He could only pull her clothes quietly and motioned in his eyes Jane Mo looked up and had covered all the emotions at the bottom of her eyes, "good." She gently pulled the corners of her mouth and got up, motioning Ding Dang to wait for her here. He nodded his eyes and gave her peace of mind. Tang Yu took Jian Mo out of the reception room and walked to Chu Zixiao''s office. On the way, he opened his mouth: "Jian Mo, anyway... Have something to say, huh?" "Nature." Jian Mo smiled. "After all, customer first has always been Xiangyu''s purpose." "..." Tang Yu moved his mouth slightly, sighed secretly, and knocked on the door of Chu Zixiao''s office without saying anything. "Come in." Chu Zixiao''s voice came from inside. Tang Yu motioned Jian Mo to go in, "it''s already noon. I''ll take your colleagues to dinner first." Jian Mo''s heart is heavy. As Chu Zixiao''s good friend, Tang Yu obviously knows that they can''t finish talking for a while... They can''t let Ding Dang follow hungry. At that time, she shouldn''t have agreed with the director to bring Ding Dang. She knew... Since the man wanted to force her to come, he wouldn''t give her a chance to shrink back. "OK, thank you." Jane Mo whispered. Tang Yu smiled and didn''t say anything. He just motioned for Jian Mo to go in. The man turned and walked towards the reception room again. Jane Mo didn''t know what she was feeling at the moment. She just felt mixed... When she opened the door, she felt even more heavy. Chu Zi Xiao stood at the window, looking at the outside with his hands in his pocket. I didn''t know if it was coincidence or what, the tree that was right outside was a Wutong. Now the flowering period of Wutong has passed, and the leaves of the trees leave only a little sadness after the flowers. The moment of Jane''s pushing door was originally thought of the opening remarks, or Chu Zixiao was embarrassed, and never spoke to her to wait for a long battle. But what she did not expect was that he was watching Wutong inside the house. "Wutong Wutong is first awakening interest in the opposite sex." Chu Zi Xiao is like a violin like graceful voice. "The Indus tree of Luoyang has always been very good. It is a good time to come." Jane Momo was silent, but stood there quietly, looking at the man''s lonely back, with a severe astringency in her heart. Chu Zixiao turned slowly, and his handsome face was calm, but his deep eyes like the sea were like a strong wind, tearing Jian Mo away. He walked slowly, step by step. Jane Mo subconsciously retreated, but behind her was the door... She couldn''t retreat. "The day before, I waited for you under the Wutong tree, and you said you would wait for me." Chu Zixiao''s voice was calm and depressing. "The airport was like yesterday, but what did I get later? A word ''let''s break up'', and there was no news." He sneered, "Jane Mo, you are so cruel!" Jane Mo''s eyelashes trembled slightly and her hands clenched with her. She tried to pull the corners of her mouth, "Chu debate, I came here today to talk about the design scheme of Chu Tang law firm..." she swallowed secretly and tried to bear the cowardice in her heart when Chu Zixiao stared at her. "I think we can talk about personal issues later." "Oh?" Chu Zixiao picked his eyebrows and then lowered his eyes, "talk about business... Sincerity?" "Huh?!" Jane Mo is a little stiff. Chu Zixiao raised his eyes, "I appointed you to design, but you appeared on the third day. What''s your sincerity?" Jane morxin knew that Chu Zixiao deliberately embarrassed her, but she could only bear it, "how can Chu argue that it is sincerity?" She looked up slightly and met him calmly. "Xiangyu sent a designer instead of an assistant designer for the initial plan. I think she has been very sincere." The two eyes are tangled together, seemingly calm, but in fact, either the undercurrent is surging, or they have been defeated. "Really?" Chu Zixiao made a light noise, and the bottom of her eyes showed mockery. Suddenly... Chu Zixiao pressed Jian Mo''s shoulder blade, quickly enlarged her face in front of her, and then sucked her tender lips Jane Mo resisted and called her head to resist, but what was right was Chu Zixiao''s sharp eyes like a raging wave. Chu Zixiao''s kiss is different from the madness and miss on the night of heaven. It is more violent under punishment and anger I don''t know whose lips were broken. The disgusting bloody breath fainted at the corners of each other''s mouths. Jian Mo''s eyes were red, and she couldn''t care about anything else. When Chu Zixiao''s tongue tried to open her teeth, she suddenly used her strength. Chu Zixiao hummed slightly and was pushed away by Jian mo The sound of "pa" immediately fell. Everything was so fast that both of them forgot their reaction and could only act by instinct. Jane Morong stared at Chu Zixiao with red eyes. Her body was shaking, and her hand was numb and astringent... If the kiss that day was hard to control, he came to humiliate her today. Why, why, why! "Chu Zixiao, you make me look down on you!" Jian Mo said this sentence with trembling teeth, then turned and opened the door and ran out... But at the moment of turning, tears could no longer be controlled. Chu Zixiao felt hot pain on his left cheek, but the pain was not as good as that from his heart. Only when he is possessed will he fall in love with Jane mo... Only when she breaks up will he rush to the airport crazily, will he shout her name in his coma, will he end everything abroad early and come back, and will he still remember her! The air seemed to be full of sadness. After Jane Mo ran out of Chu Zixiao''s office, she ran out "Jian Mo......" Tang Yu shouted behind him. Just as he was ready to go to dinner with Ding Dang, he saw the scene of Jian Mo crying and running away. The two people immediately stood in place. They didn''t know how it had been like this for only a few minutes. Jane Mo forgot that Dingdang was still there, and even forgot to drive, so she cried and ran... Until she came to a small alley, she put her hands on her knees, bent over and cried loudly. "Wuwuwuwuwu..." Jane Mo almost forgot when she was crying. She just knew that she was so sad at the moment. Once the man as gentle as jade, he always smiled at her and said faintly, "foam, what should I do with you?" My man just insulted her with that action A slap hurt his face and her heart... She fled and didn''t even dare to stay for another second for fear that her vulnerability would be exposed to him. The mobile phone ring came at the right time. Jian Mo took out her mobile phone while crying. Seeing that it was Ding Dang, she didn''t answer. She just sent a text message: I left in advance. Will you come back later? Before waiting for Ding Dang''s reply, the mobile phone rang again, indicating that it was Mr. G. Jane Mo hung up directly, but she didn''t know why, but she drew the arrow of the call... She didn''t know, but cried vaguely with tears in her eyes, and then finally squatted down and sobbed with her legs in the deserted alley. Chapter 30 Gu Beichen is having dinner. Xiao Jing took it from the staff canteen The light headquarters of emperor group is a 79 storey building, with seven staff canteens. Sometimes when he is busy, he will eat in the staff canteen, but he won''t go down. When I was having dinner, I thought that Jane Mo called last night and said she missed him, so I called her to ask if she continued to miss him. It was originally a joke to call Jane Mo, but who knows that no one spoke after the phone was connected, only the voice of crying came... And I''m very sad! From the first day he saw Jane Mo, he knew that the woman cleaned up her emotions well, at least she wouldn''t let people see her weakness. She has been together for nearly two years. No matter how much gossip he has, she still lives her life... When she goes back in her spare time, she seems to have nothing to do with him, and the supply of his physical needs is in place. In addition to talking about having to give her 20000 yuan a month for living expenses, she never asked for extra money... Susan bought clothes and jewelry. Occasionally, on a whim, he will give her some jewelry gifts that women like... She always smiles and loves, and then takes the initiative. This woman loves money and has a bottom line! In a word... He has never seen, no, never heard her so sad! "Jane Mo?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and called softly, but there was no response except crying. Almost needless to think, Gu Beichen felt that Jian Mo had unconsciously connected the phone... The woman could not expose her sadness to others. "Jane Mo, where are you?" Gu Beichen asked again. There was still no response. Gu Beichen was inexplicably flustered... He frowned slightly, put down his mobile phone, pressed off, and then dialed again... Well, he hung up directly this time. Gu Beichen''s cold face is full of haze. Hang up his phone... Jane Mo, you''re really brave. The man got up and went out of the office to one side of the special assistance office. Xiao Jinggang just looked up from the lunch box and heard Gu Beichen say in a gloomy voice, "check the location of Jian Mo''s mobile phone, and then call me." Then he took the car key and left. "Chen Shao, there will be a meeting later..." Gu Beichen kept walking, but said indifferently, "push back!" Xiao Jing doesn''t know what happened, but he still ordered the communication company under the emperor to check the number location and call Gu Beichen "Chen Shao, Miss Jane is near the third ring road. I''ll send you a navigation screenshot of the specific location." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered the call, hung up the phone and drove near the Third Ring Road... He looked at the specific location when waiting for the traffic light. It takes at least 40 minutes to get there from emperor group without traffic jam... In fact, Gu Beichen clearly knows that even if it is over, Jian Mo may not be there. However, I don''t know why, he went like this... Without thinking at all. When Jane was there, he was still shaking, even when she was there Gu Beichen slightly twisted his eyebrows, and his pupils, like obsidian, were even more frozen... Has he been crying for almost an hour? Even longer?! What makes her so sad Gu Beichen is a little fidgety. He is indifferent in nature, but he is his own woman. No matter what the reason for marrying her, he is very happy to get along with her now... Seeing Jian Mo crying like this, he always feels that there is something surging in his heart, but he can''t see clearly. Loosen the safety belt, open the door, get out of the car... All the actions are done at one go. When the handmade leather shoes stood in front of Jane Mo, she didn''t respond at all, as if she didn''t know But the truth was that she knew someone was coming, but she didn''t want to pay attention. Others treat her as crazy or lovelorn. She is in a bad mood and just wants to be quiet... Don''t ask her what the hell is quiet! There was no cry, only occasional sobs... Gu Beichen looked down at Jian Mo from a commanding position. His thin body seemed to make people feel pity at the moment. Slowly squatting down, Gu Beichen sighed and said nothing, but took Jian Mo into his arms Jane Mo''s body suddenly stiffened. For the first time, she thought of Chu Zixiao. However, Gu Beichen''s faint mint fragrance and the charm of a mature man made her instantly overturn that sudden idea. No one spoke. Jian Mo just relaxed and leaned quietly against Gu Beichen. For a moment, her heart was warm I don''t know how long it took. Jian Mo asked in Gu Beichen''s arms, "ah Chen, why are you here?" "Someone cries like a stray cat. I''ll pick it up..." Gu Beichen''s voice is low and magnetic. Such a voice is pleasant to hear and full of soothing effect. Jane Mo glanced and said angrily, "I''m not a stray cat." There is a warm feeling in my heart. I can''t say what it feels like, but I feel suddenly relieved. "Hmm..." Gu Beichen slightly scratched a thin smile on one side of his thin lips. It was not deep, but it spread to Junyan and reached the bottom of his eyes, "it''s not a stray cat." Jane morhuan looked up at Beichen''s waist, "ah Chen, I feel very ashamed... Can you leave first?" "I''ve seen you lose face for a long time. I''m afraid others will see you and give you the wind..." Gu Beichen raised his eyebrow. "It''s not good to cross the river and tear down the bridge like this." "..." Jian Mo is often speechless in the face of such a shameful person as Gu Beichen. She can''t help but be angry in her heart and return me to be a ruthless and domineering president! "Have you had lunch?" Gu Beichen''s smile deepened and asked softly. At this moment, Jane Mo was obsessed with humiliation and thought about how to rush Gu Beichen away. "After eating... Go back to work." "Oh, yes?" Gu Beichen Qingyi, the end of the words also deliberately rose, "but in order to find you... I haven''t eaten yet." Jane Mo can''t wait to push Gu Beichen down and run away by herself... Unfortunately, she can only think about it. "I''m like a ghost now. I have no face to see anyone... So go and eat it yourself." Jane Mo said awkwardly. "Well, good." Uh... Yes? Fortunately, she didn''t say anything to persuade him to leave! Gu Beichen really let go of Jian Mo, then slowly got up and didn''t go, just waiting Jane Mo immediately secretly feigned that Gu Beichen was a black goods. He agreed, but he didn''t go. He made it clear that he wanted to see what she was crying like? Haven''t you seen a woman cry?! Jane Mo was so angry that she gnashed her teeth, and then raised her head... Just because she cried for too long and hid in her arms, the darkness made her see Venus in front of her at this moment. After buffering, Jane Mo thought, it''s good enough for you to see it anyway... Her husband is not ashamed, so she comforted herself. After sipping her lips, Jane Mo slowly stood up, "don''t..." The word "smile" hasn''t been exported yet. Jian Mo suddenly turns around for a while. Suddenly, his eyes are black and he falls straight towards Gu Beichen Chapter 31 Gu Beichen quickly hugged Jane Mo and looked at her with an unknown shock, "Jane Mo, Jane mo... Mo''er?" "I, I''m fine..." Jian Mo''s voice was in a trance, half opened his blurred eyes, looked at some illusory handsome faces at the bottom of his eyes, and opened his mouth in chaos. "I just feel a little dizzy... I guess I''ve been squatting for too long." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Seeing that her body was vain and her eyes were frozen, he didn''t say anything. He just grabbed her horizontally and walked to the car with a cold face That day, the light in the alley was very soft. Jian Mo woke up slightly after the sudden lack of blood supply. She saw Gu Beichen''s chilly chin, as if she was holding back a bad mood. Gu Beichen, no matter how affectionate or cold-blooded he is in the eyes of people outside, at least... At this moment, he appeared in her fragile world as a husband. Some shame, but it makes the position of her heart palpitate inexplicably Jane Mo smiled, just hanging her lips... There is a kind of warmth in this world, not love, but habit! She and Gu Beichen have no love, but they are used to each other... Maybe this is also a kind of warmth. At least, Jane Mo felt that she could temporarily forget the pain and hide in Gu Beichen''s arms. And she did, holding Gu Beichen''s shirt tightly with her simple little hand, willfully regardless of whether it would wrinkle... Just rely on his chest and listen to his strong heartbeat. Gu Beichen looked down at the little woman with her eyes bent on her arms. Her face was still taut, but the bottom of her eyes was obviously smiling... But he didn''t even find such a comfortable smile. Put Jian Mo in the co pilot, Gu Beichen turned around the front of the car and went to the driver''s seat. Get in the car, fasten your seat belt, and then start the car and drive away... I didn''t ask Jane Mo why she was crying from beginning to end. Everyone has a city in his heart that no one can touch... He doesn''t ask, it''s respect for each other. "Back to the company?" Gu Beichen asked when she left the Third Ring Road area. She looked at Jian Mo with her side eyes. She was a little listless. "I want to go home." Jane Mo said capriciously. Gu Beichen answered and turned to lanzeyuan. "Wait, I''ll go back to the company." Jane Mo glanced at Gu Beichen. "I''ll wait for you to come back for dinner in the evening?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and watched Jian Mo get out of the car and enter the villa before turning the body and leaving. After entering the villa, Jane Mo first called Dingdang and heard her anxious voice. She only said she was fine... Then asked her to take leave. She won''t go back to the company in the afternoon. In addition, remind her not to mention the things over there. "Mo Mo, I... Have said..." Ding Dang looks like a child who did something wrong. "The director called you and no one answered, so he called me, so..." Jane Mo has a headache. "Forget it, just say it." It wasn''t a big deal. If Chu Zixiao stuck to it, everyone should know sooner or later. After hanging up the phone, Jane Mo took an ice spoon from the refrigerator and began to apply it to her eyes. She cried for so long. If she didn''t do a good job in defense, she would be in hiding tomorrow. The mobile phone has been constantly heard, all of which are the prompt tones of SMS... After Jane Mo applied it for a while, she took the mobile phone and looked at it. It is basically the voice of "care" sent by people from the design department. The basic information is as follows: Xiangwan: sister Mo, sister Mo, are you okay? Elder martial brother Chu, are you embarrassed? Da Xiong: Mo, it''s okay. We all support you! Mo Xiaoya: there''s nothing I can''t do. Jane Mo is the strongest I see. ¡­¡­ Some are angry, some are calm, some are disappointed... In short, all of them connect together, and there is a feeling that she has been abandoned by men. After Jane Mo sent a "nothing" message, she muted her mobile phone, then changed an ice spoon and continued to apply it to her eyes. Lying on the sofa, her mind was in chaos... I don''t know why, Jian Mo always felt flustered, and I don''t know whether it was because she cried too much, as if the next life would be particularly restless. A Chu Zixiao disturbed her pool of spring water when she was at school. Now, she is even more upset But Jian Mo is not a person who likes to be sloppy. No matter what the reason is, she broke up with him. She doesn''t want to get entangled with her and hurt others and herself in the end. Chu Zi Xiao stood at the window watching the Wutong tree, with a smoke in his hand, and the smoke curling up and covering him all over. Tang Yu took an ice bag and came in, "apply it." Chu Zixiao took it with a sigh, turned to the sofa, took an ice bag and put it on his left face... When he was going to Luoyang University in the afternoon, his tutor would take him to meet the students he was going to take for about a month. His face was not good. "Jian Mo''s slap is really cruel..." Tang Yu sounded a little joking. His sight fell on the broken skin at the corner of Chu Zixiao''s mouth and sighed slightly, "Zixiao, put it down." Chu Zixiao was silent and just twisted out the cigarette butts in the ashtray. "You''ve always been rational about emotional things, but since you met Jian Mo, you''ve been like a devil..." Tang Yu was annoyed. "A woman, where can''t you get Chu Zixiao?" With background, ability, talent and appearance... How many women rush to paste upside down for such a man? Why can''t he get through Jane Morse?! "Ah Yu, I love her... I used a once to consume all my enthusiasm." Chu Zixiao opened his mouth, but the scars all over his body were exposed. There was nowhere to hide. It hurt himself and Tang Yu. "What''s the use of your enthusiasm?" Tang Yu asked angrily, "what can you do with such an indifferent person?" Yes, what can he do? Who made him fall in love with her first, and then he couldn''t let her go? Chu Zixiao''s self mocking smile, Junyan has unspeakable feelings, and the injury is slowly penetrating into his bones and blood "I sometimes wonder if she had a hard time..." Chu Zixiao laughed at herself. "I even want to follow her and see her life now. But I didn''t. I''m afraid that there is really someone around her who has replaced me... You don''t understand." It was a powerless hesitation... When did Chu Zixiao experience such emotion in his life? However, the experience in Jane Morse is still the kind of pain in her heart. "You''re crazy..." Tang Yu held out such a sentence for a long time. They''re lawyers, stalking? That''s a violation of the law and a violation of privacy! Chu Zixiao put down the ice bag, "yes, I''m crazy... Crazy, falling in love with a heartless person!" Chapter 32 Chu Zixiao said so. What else can Tang Yu say? What''s more, after so many years of relationship, Zixiao can see what''s in Jian Mo''s mind most clearly. "Just now my uncle called," Tang Yu said with a slight sigh, "ask me about Jane Mo at that time..." Chu Zixiao didn''t speak. "Uncle said..." Tang Yu''s voice hesitated, but he still said, "Jane Mo needs to make achievements recently, which is related to her look UCL!" Chu Zixiao raised his eyes and looked at Tang Yu. After looking at it for a while, he said, "you echo to Uncle Tang and agree... There is a condition that all links must be followed up by Jian Mo in person." Tang Yu sighed, "today is like this. I''m afraid Jane Mo may not agree." "Then I can''t help." Chu Zixiao''s voice was cold. He put down the ice bag and got up. "I''ll go to Luoda. Call me if you have anything." Tang Yu looked at Chu Zixiao''s indifferent back and said nothing but sigh... A big boy who had been so gentle and slightly alienated was forcibly tossed by Jian Mo into a cold and evil person. Jane Mo covered her eyes and didn''t know when she fell asleep... It was more than four o''clock in the afternoon when she woke up. He got up quickly, turned on his cell phone and went to see what was in the fridge... Sure enough, there were no ingredients. Jian Mo can''t think about what happened at noon. After taking the money and mobile phone, she wants to go to the supermarket to buy something... If she is fast enough, she should be in time for Gu Beichen to come back for dinner. But when he got out of the house, he remembered that his car was still outside Chu Zixiao law firm... And it was particularly difficult to take a taxi near lanzeyuan. Jian Mo is a little hard pressed. That''s OK. When she goes out, she meets the little daughter of a real estate developer who has ideas about Gu Beichen and lives in lanzeyuan... It seems that her name is Luo Xiaotong?! "The woman who broke the news today is you?" Luo Xiaotong was still young and angry. Jian Mo was stunned at first, and some could not react... Then he saw Luo Xiaotong pull out a newspaper from his bag and throw it on her. She subconsciously caught it and looked at it suspiciously... It was the picture of Gu Beichen holding her on the bus. Fortunately, her face had disappeared in the car and only her lower body could be seen. Luo Xiaotong looked as like as two peas in the clothes. "Hum, the dress on the picture is exactly the same as yours. It''s you!" She said angrily, "daddy said that this house belongs to Beichen. What''s your relationship with him?" Beichen? The call also listened to the intimacy... Jane Mo rolled her eyes, "what do you say?" Such a rhetorical question made Luo Xiaotong angry, "you''re shameless. Don''t you know Beichen has a wife? He''s still his bed companion!" Jane Mo sneered, "don''t you want to?" "I......" Luo Xiaotong just said a word and quickly shut up and said, "I love him. I''m not as cheap as you. I just want to have sex with him!" "Yes, I''m cheap. Can you control it?" Jane Mo thought the girl was really out of her mind. "Anyway, he at least loves sleeping with me, but will he love you?" She snorted coldly. "I believe I love him... Sooner or later he will fall in love with me." Luo Xiaotong said with staring eyes. Jian Mo was unable to laugh or cry, and said proudly with a cold hiss, "love? Gu Beichen still loves to sleep with me, and then said when he was excited that he wanted to die on you!" Then she looked contemptuously at the little girl''s undeveloped body, "but she doesn''t even look at you?" Luo Xiaotong looked at Jian Mo in amazement. Unexpectedly, she was so bold to confront her outside, "you, you don''t want to be ashamed!" "I just don''t want face!" Jane Mo rolled her eyes and looked at Luo Xiaotong, who was not in a paragraph at all. "Please let me hurry!" Luo Xiaotong said angrily, "hum, I want to expose you!" Jian Mo''s heart "clattered", but then he smiled and said with confidence: "OK, go... I wish it! You don''t know how much I want to expose with Gu Beichen... Alas, it''s a pity that he doesn''t want me to. Go, go, I''ll thank you after the exposure!" With that, she turned and crossed Luo Xiaotong to leave "..." Luo Xiaotong looked at Jian Mo''s cold and hot, and her little face turned red with anger. Finally, she said, "cheap..." she turned and scolded. However, before she could export all her words, she choked in her mouth. Jian Mo looked at the tall figure standing next to Shijue and was embarrassed... She didn''t know when the car stopped and when Gu Beichen stood there. Gu Beichen glanced at Luo Xiaotong coldly, and then said to Xiao Jing, "don''t let me see cats and dogs come in here in the future, otherwise all the people in the security department will be fired." Xiao Jing looked at Luo Xiaotong and answered. Luo Xiaotong''s face turned white immediately, "Beichen, I..." "What are you, and you call my name casually?" His face was cold and cold. Jian Mo shrugged, walked forward and deliberately surrounded Gu Beichen''s arm with a look of being raised by a bud. "Honey, I''m going to buy vegetables and cook for you... Since you''re back, let''s go together?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s rare cunning at the bottom of his eyes, which was different from the sadness at noon. Although he had less true temperament, he was more flexible, "good!" All he spoiled was to answer one word, and then he took her into the car. Spyker disappeared arrogantly in front of Luo Xiaotong with tail gas. Within two minutes, she was personally invited out of Gu Beichen''s villa area by the security captain On the way to the supermarket, Xiao Jing drove his car and looked at the two people in the back seat from the rearview mirror, with a slight smile on his mouth. How does he feel that he has been diligent in coming back to lanze park these two days? Even, it seems that there are some emotions! "Why, I''m not afraid of exposure?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. Jane Mo smiled falsely, "the more you let her go, the less she will let me succeed." Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep. Suddenly his body bullied Jane Mo, and his voice was low and ambiguous. He asked softly in her ear, "just now I seem to hear someone say... When I''m excited, I want to die on her?" "Teng" once, Jane Mo''s face turned red. She pulled the corners of her mouth and said, "play, joke... Don''t take it seriously, ha ha!" She turned her eyes and quickly changed the topic. "Why did you come back so early today? It''s not time to get off work." "For your sake, I don''t do my job..." Gu Beichen said naturally. "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth. "Why, I''m so happy that I can''t speak?" Gu Beichen said lightly, "it''s all right. Just be moved!" Jane Mo''s mouth twitched slightly, and she didn''t know how to answer. When he arrived at the supermarket, Xiao Jing was a man who knew the current affairs and offered to go to the supermarket to buy food materials After Xiao Jing left, the atmosphere in the car was particularly treacherous... Well, there was something warm and ambiguous in the treachery. Jian Mo looked at the burning Gu Beichen and moved to the door with some vigilance. "Jian Mo, it seems that we haven''t tried in the car yet..." Gu Beichen said. Jane Mo said hurriedly, "this is a public place." "It''s all right. There are reflectors." Gu Beichen said and directly pressed the button... Sure enough, the luxurious Spyker design is very humanized, providing the best cover for bad things in the car. Jane Mo tried to struggle, "Xiao Jing will come back soon..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered, but his hand had reached into Jian Mo''s clothes, "so let''s make a quick decision!" The words fall, others have bullied Jian mo... And pressed her down! Chapter 33 After Xiao Jing bought it, he found something wrong with the car... You can''t see the inside from the outside. As soon as you see it, you have raised the reflector. Why raise the reflector? It seems that the answer is self-evident Chen Shao and his wife are really interesting. They can go to the battlefield anytime and anywhere... Xiao Jing can only stand and wait from a distance. After waiting for more than ten minutes, the reflector was removed. It should be finished... However, Xiao Jing didn''t go directly, but waited for another ten minutes or so before pretending that if he hadn''t opened the trunk in advance, put the ingredients in, and then went to the driver''s seat. "Chen Shao, go straight back to lanze garden?" Xiao Jing asked as if nothing had happened. Nowadays, it''s really not easy to be a special helper! Look, in order not to embarrass the two, he has to cooperate a little later. The flush on Jian Mo''s face hasn''t completely faded. Gu Beichen has a thick skin and doesn''t think it at all. But how does she feel like stealing... Well, stealing sunny. Gu Beichen, who stared obliquely and looked as if nothing had happened, thought that just when he was most excited, he deliberately bad in her ear and said hoarsely: "it''s too tight. I really want to die on you..." Jane Mo just felt that she was burning all over and her face became more and more red... She quickly turned her head to look out of the window and tried to hide her embarrassment. Spyker smoothly shuttled through the busy streets of Los Angeles, because after the two people on the bus did what they love to do, they happened to be in the rush hour... They could have arrived home before six o''clock, but now they are still blocked on the road. Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen with a sad face. It''s good for others to find something to do... Holding her notebook and starting to deal with documents, she didn''t waste time at all. Jane Mo was bored. She simply took her mobile phone out to play... A look, there was a text message on it. Li Xiaoyue: Niu, are you okay? No one answered your call. I have a case to deal with later. Call me back when you see it. Jian Mo turned off the mute in the afternoon and forgot to turn on her voice. Seeing Li Xiaoyue''s text message, I knew she was asking where to go to Chu Zixiao in the morning: it''s very chaotic. I feel more and more chaotic about some things... I''m very upset. Li Xiaoyue didn''t reply. She should still be busy. Jane Mo sighed, suddenly lost interest in playing and pressed out her mobile phone. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian mo. just when he was excited to the top, the woman was charming and unreasonable... But at this moment, she was really not like her. At noon, Gu Beichen didn''t want to ask, but Jian Mo was obviously worried. In the end, he asked from the side: "did anyone say that the bad mood of people around him can easily affect the people around him?" Jian Mo glanced at Gu Beichen and said, "sigh is not a bad mood sometimes, but the depressed breath in her heart will be relieved, and then it will be all right." "Come on, tell me, what''s the depression?" Gu Beichen closed the computer and put it aside, looking at Jian Mo seriously. Jane Mo knew in her heart that although Gu Beichen didn''t ask about noon, it doesn''t mean he really didn''t mind at all. She hid her tone and asked him to check it himself. It''s better to be honest. "Can I have no depression?" Jian Mo glanced, "now competing for a project is about to become a grandson." At last, she glanced directly across her eyes with some anger. She didn''t lie. Today she went to Chu Zixiao to talk about the design case. Even if Gu Beichen knew what happened today, she also had a way back... But she didn''t say who that person was. Gu Beichen''s arm supported the handrail put down on one side, the back of his hand supported his chin and looked at Jian mo. the deep ink pupil looked at Jian Mo like a vortex, "with so much pressure, will you continue to work?" Jane Mo shrugged her shoulders helplessly and didn''t want to continue this topic... Plan ahead, not to mention that her mother''s medical expenses have risen again. "Why don''t I open a design company for you?" Gu Beichen said, "it''s easy to be your own boss!" "Are you relaxed?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen and asked. Gu Beichen drooped his eyes slightly and shook his head... He is in charge of such a large company as emperor group, with tens of thousands of employees all over the world, and countless people attached to Emperor. How can it be easy? "Even if I''m my own boss, I still have to pull the project..." Jian Mo said in a low voice, "mainly, I don''t want to rely too much on you." She told the truth. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "You''re my wife. Shouldn''t you rely on your husband?" "What if one day it''s not?" Asked Jane mo. "Since the company is for you, it''s yours." Gu Beichen said naturally. Jane Mo''s heart inexplicably had a strange emotion slipping through, as if she was lost and helpless, but she didn''t have time to see it too fast. "We made a statement in advance that I won''t take any compensation for divorce." "My gift doesn''t count!" "But I don''t want to break the contract..." "Jane Mo, sometimes I always think, do you really love money? Or do you agree at the beginning? What''s the trouble?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with more and more profound eyes. Jane Mo''s heart "clattered", but her face didn''t show anything, "I''m a gentleman who loves money and takes it..." Gu Beichen smiled deeply. Jane Mo coagulated secretly. She didn''t want to make the atmosphere stiff. She quickly grinned and flattered, "ah Chen, if you feel so guilty about me, you can add some living expenses to me, and I''ll be guaranteed in the future..." she sighed gently. "Now prices are soaring, and it''s expensive to keep a car or anything." "Yes." Gu Beichen just answered the voice indifferently. Jian Mo didn''t continue this topic. She would say to increase the cost of living. More or less, it was to let Gu Beichen eliminate a little doubt She sold herself to him, but still insisted on maintaining a little ridiculous self-esteem... She always told herself that she earned the money, not the man''s charity. Although, to some extent, there is no difference. The car finally got through. Xiao Jing drove the car and occasionally took a look in the rearview mirror at the two people in the back seat... They were husband and wife, but they seemed to handle each other''s relationship very well. As a special assistant, he felt that in such an atmosphere, he would automatically become an invisible person... Alas, sigh again, it''s really not easy for him! Afterwards, Jian Mo found that the monthly cost of living was really high... Not much, up 10000, 30000 a month! Jane Mo looked at the extra ten thousand and didn''t know whether to be happy or what... In fact, when she said that, everyone knew that she was greasy at that time, plus what she wanted to hide. However, Gu Beichen really added it. Does it mean that he accepts her little self-esteem?! Jane Mo can''t be elegant because she doesn''t have time to immerse herself in the past time... Because Su Junli decides to use her design scheme, she is very busy every day recently. Fortunately, Gu Beichen went abroad again... The date of return is not certain. Gu Beichen is not here. What makes her happiest now is that she and Chu Zixiao can drag on again. Jane Mo felt that she was too ostrich in this matter, but she really couldn''t bear the consequences if her nephews knew how embarrassing she was Chapter 34 After a week of peace, Jian Mo almost forgot that people need to be vigilant in times of peace. "Do you have time to have tea?" Su Jun asked Jian Mo with a thin smile at the corners of his elegant and gentle mouth. He has just signed a contract with Xiangyu for the design of the concert hall. Jian Mo pointed to the design drawing in his hand, shrugged and said helplessly, "it seems... There is no time." Su Jun left and said he was powerless. Then he asked with a gentle smile, "in fact, there will be a small charity concert the day after tomorrow. Do you have the opportunity to invite you to be my girlfriend?" "Me?" Jane Mo was a little surprised. "You shouldn''t lack a girlfriend." "Su Jun''s smile won''t bother me......". Jane Mo immediately understood what he meant. This is to let her be a shield. "In view of my friends, it seems that I can''t refuse." Su Junli smiled. He was already gentle and handsome. This smile immediately made people feel like a spring breeze. "It''s not long since he just returned home. It''s not easy to find a temporary female partner." There was a sense of helplessness in his voice. Jian Mo can understand that most women in his position are full of purpose... After all, it has been wildly spread outside. Old man Su plans to give Su Junli the stick of the Su family. "It''s a pleasure. It''s not easy. I''m the exception." Jane Mo blinked twice and smiled, "you have my phone. I''ll contact you later... Now..." "You''re busy!" Su Junli nodded and smiled thoughtfully, "I''ll call you later." Jane Mo nodded with a smile, and then left with some regret Su Junli turned around and looked at the figure of Jian Mo''s desk drawing. The smile on the corners of his mouth deepened, and even the bottom of his eyes were confused... He never believed in love at first sight, and naturally he would not be moved at second sight. It''s just that this girl named Jian mo Su Jun''s thoughts stagnated slightly, took back his eyes and turned away. At the moment of leaving the design department, his eyes slipped over Jian Mo again... She seemed to have no impression of her childhood memory! Su Junli left a little disappointed, but there was a thought-provoking smile around his mouth... Well, re understanding represents a new beginning. Brave girl, nice to meet you again many years later. After a busy day, Jane Mo finally finished the previous design drawing with mistakes... Because she was so busy back and forth, she sat on the toilet when she could have a rest. "Have you heard?" A mysterious voice came from outside, "Jane Mo from the engineering design department?" "Why didn''t you hear..." another female voice sneered. "It''s been all over the world these two days. I heard that she didn''t have a lower limit to talk about the design project." "I heard Lily say I didn''t believe it before. It turned out to be true..." "I told you yesterday, you don''t believe..." another voice was added, "I felt familiar with the clothes she was wearing before. That time, her thin shirt fell to the ground. I found it and looked at the label. I didn''t feel anything at first... Who knows, I saw it in a magazine yesterday. It''s a high-end private ordered product. I heard that the brand is only customized for rich families all over the world." "Really?!" "Can''t it be counterfeit?" "Counterfeiting also imitates the well-known luxury goods. Who will imitate those low-key luxury things?" "Also..." "Alas, you say, is Jian Mo raised by rich people? Or is it good that she sleeps with those customers in exchange for performance and famous brands?" "I think it''s almost the same. Let''s see... Xiangyu is a second and third rate company. Who are su Junli and Chu Zixiao? Why do you like Xiangyu? Besides, they all make design drawings by simple foam..." "Hum, it looks very pure at ordinary times. It turned out to be a piece of goods." Jane Mo listens to the talk outside and sneers at the corners of her mouth... The bathroom is always a place for gossip, but it is also the easiest to be found. Press the water pump, Jane Mo goes out indifferently, then washes her hands in the stunned and twitching face of the three women... Slowly pulls out the paper to wipe her hands and throws it into the trash can. Jian Mo turned and looked at three women, two from the administration department and one from the Ministry of interior. "I personally suggest that when talking about these gossip in the future, we should first make sure whether there are people who don''t want to hear but are forced to listen." She said calmly, "many things. The original intention of gossip is to relieve your jealousy, but it''s bad if you''re unhappy... Three, isn''t it?" Three people were caught by the gossip heroine, which was a little embarrassing. "You go on... I won''t disturb you." Jane Mo smiled calmly, then turned and left with a calm step. "What..." "This is called a dead pig, not afraid of boiling water!" A faint voice floated out of the bathroom, and Jane Mo''s face became indifferent Some people are naturally fond of stepping on others for fun. Such people, no matter how hard and friendly you are, can''t make them feel good about you. Do you mind? How could it be... But what could she do? You can''t shut someone''s mouth. The ringing of the mobile phone interrupted Jane Mo''s thoughts. She took it out of her pocket and looked at it. It was an unrecorded number with a tail number of 3719... Looking at the tail number, Jane Mo''s heart suddenly "clicked". Just because this tail number is the tail number of her previous mobile phone number... 3719. She once told Chu Zixiao that this number represents deep love! Stunned in situ, Jian Mo''s hand began to tremble, which was uncontrollable. After the bell rang, it rang again, as if Jane Mo would not stop Finally, Jane Mo could only connect with her heart. She just took a deep breath when she put it in her ear, and then professionally said, "Hello, this is Jane Mo, who is this?" The other end of the mobile phone was silent at first, and then came a slightly low voice, "Chu Zixiao..." gave a slight meal. He then said, "wait for me at Feitian hotel at 7 pm." Jane Mo immediately frowned, "impossible!" "I''m only free tonight, if you want to make the first draft of the design..." Chu Zixiao''s cold voice came. Jane took a deep breath again. "You don''t have to be in a hotel to meet." The other side was silent again, and then came Chu Zixiao''s sarcastic voice, "Jian Mo, your thoughts are really dirty now." "..." Jian Mo was frozen in place. "If I remember correctly, there are restaurants, cafes and sky gardens in Feitian..." Chu Zixiao said coldly, "or is it a man who invited you to the hotel just to open a room?" Jian Mo immediately clenched his hand and secretly bit his teeth at the ridicule in Chu Zixiao''s words. "Excuse me, is Chu Bian going to meet in a restaurant, a coffee shop, or the sky garden?" Chu Zixiao smiled, but when that smile was transmitted to Jian Mo''s ears through the wireless wave, it was seeping, "in room 3719, you can get the room card at the front desk." Jane Mo was stunned at first, then burst out and shouted at her mobile phone, "Chu Zixiao, you bastard!" Chapter 35 There was a low laughter from the mobile phone. That laughter is different from the cold ridicule just now. It makes people feel calm Jane Mo tightly pursed her lips and didn''t speak. Because of her strength, she pinched her mobile phone and heard a "quack" sound, which became particularly strange in the quiet corridor. "In the evening, I had dinner with several tutors of Luoyang University. When the tutor mentioned you, he asked me to make an appointment," Chu Zixiao''s voice came slowly. "Didn''t I make an appointment to talk about the first draft of the design? Let''s talk about it today..." Jane Mo was breathing heavily because of her breath on her chest. "This number is not yours!" "Now it''s..." Chu Zixiao''s voice became serious. "Jian Mo, I''ll find the lost time." He continued in a slight silence, "I''m sorry that day." Jane Mo closed her eyes and covered up the astringency of her eyes. The body trembled slightly. I didn''t know whether it was because Chu Zixiao joked or because of his deep feelings at the moment. No matter what, it made her tremble all over. "Chu Bian, if you have time tonight, I can make an appointment after you eat," Jane Mo tried to calm herself. "I''ll wait for you in the sky garden of the hotel at nine o''clock. Come to me after your meal." Chu Zi Xiao''s eyes light tiny tiny see at the Luo big campus''s Wutong tree, silent for a while, should. After hanging up the phone, Jane Mo only felt weak. She sat on the stairs and looked at the front with empty eyes. She felt astringent pain... She thought she was strong enough. At least, after the night two years ago, nothing could beat her. But not at all Whether Chu Zixiao''s name or he is a person, it is a pain that she can''t touch at the bottom of her heart. Jane Mo drooped her eyes and her face was painful It''s summer and autumn, and the air is slightly cool. But sitting in the sky garden of Feitian Hotel, quietly listening to the flowing piano sound and looking at the night scene of Los Angeles, it''s a different taste. Chu Zixiao didn''t come until almost ten o''clock. He was slightly drunk. It was obvious that he had drunk. Jian Mo looked at him through the dim light and crossed his eyes in the air, as if there had never been a lack of more than two years, but only a thousand years of thoughts and thoughts. Chu Zixiao walked forward. "After drinking wine, he felt dizzy after blowing. Change a place..." he said. He had taken out his wallet, took out a few large bills and pressed them on the table. Before Jane Mo reacted, he pulled her up and went to the elevator. Jane Mo wanted to get rid of it, but her wrist was shackled by Chu Zixiao. She tried several times and didn''t take it out, so she had to give up. "To the cafe?" Asked Jane when she got into the elevator. Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but just pressed the number of floors Feitian hotel has a total of 50 floors. The first floor is the reception hall, the second to fifth floors are the catering department, the sixth floor is the cafe and gym, the seventh to fifteenth floors are the business center and private club, the 50th floor is the office, and the 16th to 49th floors are the guest rooms. The higher the floor, the higher the consumption. When the elevator stopped on the 37th floor, Jian Mo frowned instantly, "Chu Zixiao!" Chu Zixiao didn''t answer, but took Jian Mo out after the elevator door opened, and then really stopped in room 3719 Jane Mo was really angry this time. She couldn''t care about the pain on her wrist. She twisted and pulled it out, "Chu Zixiao, you''re too much." Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. His deep eyes seemed to have some rough waves pouring out... Jian Mo had never seen him like this, and there was a dangerous smell all over him. "There''s only one chance," Chu Zixiao said in a calm voice, "if you don''t grasp it, I don''t mind complaining about Xiangyu''s failure to perform the contract." "But there is no designer in the contract. I have to talk about design with you in the hotel room!" Jane Mo was angry and said with gnashing teeth. The bottom of her eyes was the insult he brought her to the guest room. Chu Zixiao looked at her eyes and sneered, "I have to talk here, so what?" He slightly raised his eyebrows, because he was slightly drunk, and the whole person was thoroughly evil and cunning. "Jane Mo, it''s easy for me to make something beneficial to me, especially in court." He didn''t talk big. As Chu Zixiao, who had taken over many cases at school, his greatest ability is to make the impossible possible here. Jane Mo waited for her eyes. The person in front of her was strange to her. "This is what you call to find the lost time back?" She clenched her hands tightly. "Chu Zixiao, in the past, you wouldn''t treat me like this, let alone push me like this." Chu Zixiao smiled, "what about you? Jane Mo, I find who I used to be. Can you return me who I used to be?" His voice was a little sad, because of the smell of wine, mixed with some decadence, "if you return the Jane foam to me, I will no longer force each other." Jianmo''s heart suddenly hurts... Once Jianmo can''t come back. How can she repay it? Her eyes became red uncontrollably. She met three times, as if she would be embarrassed every time... But what could she do? Love, divided; Hurt, hurt... Everything, can''t go back! Chu Zixiao''s eyes tightly locked Jane Mo, looking at the sadness and pain in the bottom of her eyes. His voice said in a low voice: "Jane Mo, you still love me... Right?" The last light, eh, was very careful. Jian Mo''s hand is getting closer and closer. Her fingernails are embedded in the palm of her hand. She doesn''t know, "I don''t love you anymore... Because I don''t love you, I''ll break up." "You lie!" Three words were squeezed out of Chu Zixiao''s teeth. His eyes were scarlet, like an angry Beast. "Obviously not, why do you say that?" Jian Mo gently vibrated her eyelashes and tried to pull out an ugly smile from the corners of her mouth, "Chu Zixiao, I gave up... If you want to sue me for breaking the contract, Sue!" She put down the words mercilessly, turned and left with a big step. She just took two steps and began to run. Jane Mo madly pressed the elevator, but the elevator didn''t come. She was eager to escape and had to dodge to the stairs The quiet corridor became particularly quiet because of Jane Mo''s departure, as if the heartbeat could turn into a drum. ¡ª¡ªJane Mo drifts between the noble and the noble. Such a woman doesn''t deserve you, Chu Zixiao! This message brought out all his jealousy... Originally, he just wanted to talk to her, but the message dug his heart so deeply. Jealousy, whether true or false, he was crazy jealous... Because the wine and the indifference of Jane Mo''s eyes made him lose his mind. Chu Zixiao opened the guest room door of 3719 and turned on the light The dazzling petals spread the whole room. On the white sheets, 3719 was made of purple evening fog... He told her that he was "still in love" with her. The design of the law firm, it''s just a cover... He just wants to get close to her. When I asked her to come here, I didn''t have any bad thoughts and never thought of insulting her... He just wanted to create a romance for her, a romance that would enable him to recover her... That''s all! Chu Zixiao lowered his eyes and laughed at himself. He felt very poor and more ridiculous since now Does it hurt? It seems that he has been numb... But why did he think of her? When he saw her, he went crazy! Tang Yu was right. He was possessed Chapter 36 As an international metropolis, Los Angeles has neon lights and busy traffic at night. It is a city that never sleeps. Jane Mo drove her car aimlessly through the streets of Los Angeles... She tried to be calm, but Chu Zixiao''s every subtle expression and action could deeply hurt her. Open a room... Hehe, he can really open a room! Something blurred her sight. Jane Mo ignored it and just drove on the street subconsciously Suddenly, a car drove out of the alley on one side... The light flashing after the horn. Jian Mo didn''t pay attention because her thoughts were empty. When she reacted, it was already late. When the harsh sound of "bang" came, Jane Mo''s forehead knocked hard against the steering wheel. Just for a moment, she lost consciousness. There was a sound of slapping the window in her ear, and a cry came... Jane Mo wanted to respond to each other, but she didn''t have enough strength. Forget it, shout, she''s a little tired... Let her sleep for a while. The sound of "clang" came from behind, as if there were the sound of broken glass... Jian Mo''s consciousness has become more and more blurred. The door of the driver''s seat was opened, and the body was taken into a faint embrace with the smell of water "Don''t be afraid. I''ll take you to the hospital. You''ll be fine." A man''s gentle and pleasant voice came to my ears, but I was afraid and dignified. Jian Mo''s consciousness finally fell into a coma after this sentence. Maybe the man''s words played a role... In the final consciousness, she was at ease. The quiet environment, all silent, seems to be embedding people into reincarnation Jane Mo had a dream, in which she returned to the time when she just went to Luoyang University... She has a happy family, her father''s love, her mother''s smile and her brother''s love. Later, there was one more person, one who said that as long as she turned around, she would always be behind her In such a dream, she cried... The tears overflowed from her closed eyes, and she saw them dripping on the pillow towel and fainted in an instant. Su Junli sat by the hospital bed, looking at the sad Jane foam in his sleep, and slightly coagulated his eyes, "what makes you so sad?" He reached out and held her hand into his palm. "In this world, no one can hurt anyone. Treat yourself well, isn''t it?" Jian Mo''s hand moved slightly, and Su Jun stroked past her finger, as if to give her comfort Sure enough, such a move made Jane Mo feel at ease gradually, and her sadness slowly gathered away and fell into a deep sleep. When Jian Mo woke up, it was the morning of the next day... The morning light tore the dirt of the East and fell on every corner of Los Angeles with brilliance and hope. With a "um" cry, Jane Mo just felt that there was a shot put rolling in her head... She twisted her eyebrows, and she slowly opened her heavy eyes At first glance, it was a pink white, with the smell of disinfectant in the nose... Thoughts gradually gathered, and Jian Mo suddenly widened his eyes and wanted to get up. However, because the action was too fierce, her head was dizzy. Suddenly, because of the lack of blood supply, her eyes were black and almost fainted again. The door of the ward was opened, and Su Jun came in with something in his hand. "Wake up? The doctor said you would wake up this morning..." he put the things in his hand aside, "do you feel uncomfortable? I''ll ask the doctor to check again?" Jane Mo''s head is a little confused. "Why are you here?" It wasn''t him who hit the car yesterday, was it? Seeing what Jian Mo was thinking, Su Junli smiled politely, "it wasn''t my car that hit, I just passed by in a car accident... I thought the car was familiar, so I looked more, but I didn''t expect..." Jane Mo pulled at the corner of her mouth, "well, I hit the car... Is everyone okay?" Her heart coagulated because she asked this sentence. "It''s just the problem of the car," Su Jun answered softly, without too much hidden emotion. "Everyone is fine. I asked the garage to pull you and the other party''s car to repair. It''s you. You have a slight concussion. Fortunately, it''s not serious." Jane Mo blamed herself. Driving in her mood last night was not only irresponsible to herself, but also irresponsible to others. "Thank you..." "We are friends." Su Jun opened his mouth lightly, and there was a gentle smile on the corner of his mouth, "thank you, is it too alienated?" Jane Mo was silent. She was not a hypocritical person. She was relieved to know that Su Junli was sincere in making friends with her. "Well, you can give me an account and I''ll call you." "OK." Su Junli didn''t refuse. Jian Mo''s temperament is a person who doesn''t like to owe. If you really get along with her, you can''t make her feel pressure first. The doctor came to check Jane again and said there was nothing serious to leave the hospital "I''ll go through the discharge formalities. As for breakfast, I''ll finish it when you eat almost." Su Jun thoughtfully handed the lunch box to Jian Mo, and then turned away with a smile. Jane Mo didn''t recover until the door of the ward was closed. She slightly tightened her eyebrows, lowered her eyes and looked at the food box... Seriously, she had no appetite and was still worried about the car accident last night. But I don''t know why, in my mind, it was Su Jun''s soft words that subconsciously opened the food box... Mushroom chicken porridge?! Jane Mo''s eyes were slightly sluggish, and she couldn''t help whispering: "sure enough, there''s really no secret in front of people who study psychology..." of course, she was joking. It was a beautiful coincidence that Su Junli bought her favorite mushroom chicken porridge. After going through the discharge formalities, Jane Mo didn''t finish the bowl of porridge "No appetite?" Although Su Junli was asking, he was obviously sure, "if you have no appetite, you won''t eat." Jian Mo nodded. After Su Jun took the lunch box in her hand, she wanted to get out of bed "Oh, by the way, someone called you last night," Su Junli said suddenly. "I called several times for fear that the other party had something to do. Finally, I answered without your consent." Jane Mo listened, took her cell phone and checked the records "It''s Mr. G!" "..." Jane Mo has seen the record. There were three phone calls around two o''clock in the morning. "You, what do you say?" Su Junli saw Jian Mo''s face and didn''t answer directly. He just asked, "boyfriend?" Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth, "no..." her husband is not a boyfriend. Well, she is not a liar. Hearing what she said, Su Junli didn''t know why. She was relieved, "because I don''t know the relationship and it''s too late... I''m a man. I''m always bad for your reputation. I can only say that you had a small car accident." He smiled lightly. "I pretended to be a doctor on duty and just made a ward round." Jane Mo was amused by Su Jun''s expression... But it was necessary to send a text message to Mr. g to report her situation, and after the report, she felt she couldn''t laugh. Mr. G: who is the man who answered the phone? Jane Mo''s heart "cluttered" and replied: doctor on duty. Gu Beichen replied after a while: very good. The confessions are collusive, aren''t they? Jane Mo, you wait to die! Chapter 37 Jane Mo''s heart was in a state of confusion. She didn''t know whether Gu Beichen knew anything... But when she thought about it, she thought it was impossible. After all, others have not come back from abroad Because Su Jun was away from her, she didn''t dare to show too much. She just shrugged and said, "I have to go to work, you..." "I''ll see you off!" Su Junli didn''t expose Jian Mo''s careful thought. Jane nodded, but didn''t refuse... Her car was sent for repair. It''s a little difficult to take a taxi. It was not a glorious thing last night, and she didn''t want the people around her to have any ideas. Su Junli sent Jian Mo to the downstairs of the office building. Seeing her get off, he said slightly, "don''t forget the banquet tomorrow night." "Will you hear you play?" Jane Mo asked half jokingly. Su Jun paused slightly and then asked, "do you want to hear it?" Jane Mo frowned, "what''s the difference?" Su Junli smiled. He just walked through such a charity concert and wouldn''t really perform on the stage... Of course, if she wanted to listen, he didn''t mind making an exception. "Don''t give me such a big desire to expand. I''m afraid I''ll get lost!" Jane Mo said with a smile, blinking at the right time. Her smart appearance was particularly charming. Su Junli admits that she has a mind for Jian mo. such a smart woman who keeps herself calm is not much in today''s society "Contact tomorrow." Jane Mo nodded and got out of the car. She was still worried about a small car accident last night... She entered the elevator and thought about whether to return a message to Gu Beichen, but she didn''t know how to explain. After thinking for a long time, she can only tell the truth: that... The person who answered the phone was a kind person who helped with a knife. Actually, I hope that person is yours. At the moment of coma, the person in my mind was you... If only you were around. Thousand wear ten thousand wear flattery don''t wear... Jane Mo looked at the last sentence, and her body shook uncontrollably. Some cold! Gu Beichen was playing golf when the phone rang, surrounded by two foreigners. The three talked in English from time to time, but in a few words, they had reached a cooperation case of hundreds of millions of dollars. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing came forward and handed over his mobile phone. Gu Beichen took the text message and saw a slight lag in his steps. When he looked at the last sentence, his heart seemed to slip through a warm current. Soon, he unconsciously raised the corners of his mouth. When the man answered the phone call yesterday, he already asked about the hospital. There was a small car accident, but she was in a coma... Don''t you worry? How can a woman who has slept around for nearly two years not worry at all. Gu Beichen presses out his mobile phone and gives it to Xiao Jing. He continues to play When Jian Mo arrived at the office, she didn''t receive Gu Beichen''s reply and didn''t care. Anyway, she had explained. Believe it or not, that''s it. "Mo Mo, director''s telephone..." at the right time, Su Keyang shouted at Jian Mo with the telephone in his hand. Jane Mo walked over and picked up, "director?" "Chu Bian will come over at 10 o''clock. I''ll let you vacate the reception room No. 4 and you can prepare the design scheme materials." Tang Haoyang''s voice came with a little smile, "Jian Mo, you still have a way. I feel you can''t make it... I''m not surprised if you say you''ve finished the emperor." Jian Mo didn''t listen to Tang Haoyang''s words, but her subordinates consciously clenched the handle of the phone and pursed their lips... She didn''t know what Chu Zixiao meant. Did she have to be embarrassed again and again to calm his anger that he had been "dumped" by her! Before ten o''clock, Jane Mo waited in reception room 4... This time, she didn''t let anyone follow. Chu Zixiao came on time. Xu had just come from school. He just wore a white shirt and a black suit pants. The whole person went to that station, as if everything would be tarnished because of him. "Chu debate!" Jane Mo said hello gracefully, as if nothing had happened last night. Chu Zixiao sat down and looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. He didn''t speak. He just took out his cigarette and lit it... He took a slow breath and rolled up wildly at will. Jane Mo frowned slightly. She didn''t mind a man smoking, but... When did he start smoking? "Mind?" Chu Zixiao asked casually. Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and came to ask if it was too late Shaking her head, she just silently pushed the ashtray past, and then said: "as for the design scheme of Chu Tang law firm, I intend to start from the theme of being able and calm..." Chu Zixiao didn''t speak. He listened to Jian Mo all the time. From time to time, his fingers beat the ash. All his actions reflected an elegance in him. Jian Mo''s heart became more and more heavy, and she seemed unable to breathe because of this atmosphere. "Chu debate, is there anything that needs to be modified or added?" Chu Zixiao didn''t speak immediately. He just twisted out the cigarette butts in the ashtray, and then slowly raised his eyes. He said with a good look: "the law firm is a place where lawyers and customers need to be calm. Do you think it''s really appropriate to match the spring color?" Jian Mo secretly clenched his teeth, "if Chu Bian is not satisfied with the tone, I can change it..." "The color is mainly black and white..." Chu Zixiao said faintly, and his eyes looked at Jian Mo fiercely. "I don''t like changing!" Jane Mo''s heart was oppressed and was about to explode. She clenched the pen in her hand, "OK!" Chu Zixiao smiled, "do you know what I heard when I came in?" He asked, but did not let Jane Mo answer. "Some people say that Jian Mo can get a lot of projects that others can''t get because he sells his body..." Chu Zixiao''s eyes are slightly cold and thought of the text message yesterday. "Jian Mo will wear private customized luxury goods. It seems plain from head to toe, but everything is written by famous artists... Well, it''s also from bed." "And then?" Jane Mo sneered. "I suddenly thought..." Chu Zixiao''s eyes became familiar with it. "How much do you need to spend with you at night?" Jane Mo''s heart suddenly seemed to be inserted by a knife. Her teeth began to tremble. "You came to ask me this?" Proud as she was, she couldn''t bear to continue to be sad in front of him. "Chu Zixiao, no matter how much I pay for the night, it has nothing to do with you." Chu Zixiao looked slightly, "don''t you explain?" He was a little heartache, "I know Jane Mo is not such a person..." Jane Mo smiled. "What kind of person do you know about me? In fact, you''ve known since you came back to see me... You''ve never known me before, haven''t you?" Being exposed, Chu Zixiao frowned. "You will ask me like this, and even take time to talk about the first draft of the design today... Don''t you want to come and question me when you hear that I have been raised?" Jane Mo sneered. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were so familiar that he took out a photo and pushed it forward, "Jane Mo, anyone can, but why him?" There was a sad crack in the corner of his mouth, which seemed to be very painful and numb. Jane Mo drooped her eyes, and her eyes fell on the photo. She just stared at it. Her face was completely unbelievable Chapter 38 This photo is still the photo of the foot injury going to the hospital. However, unlike the online disclosure, it is obvious that the photo can see less than half of her face It''s ok if you don''t know anyone. As long as you are familiar with her, you can recognize her... It''s Gu Beichen holding her! Breathing was a little short, and even the body began to tremble slightly. "Do you know how I feel when I see this picture?" Chu Zixiao sneered, "do you know how I feel when I see the news? Jane Mo, you are so cruel!" Jian Mo''s breath began to be short and thick. She tightly pursed her lips. After a while, she slowly pulled up her sight and looked at Chu Zixiao. Laughter is the only thing she can do at the moment, even if it''s ugly! "As you can see..." Jian Mo smiled. "I''m trying my best to lure rich men. Gu Beichen is obviously very rich!" She saw the crack at the bottom of Chu Zixiao''s eyes, but pretended not to hurt. "You know, I''d like to design the club completed under the emperor''s banner recently... In order to meet him, I don''t even hesitate to touch porcelain in front of his car..." "It''s just that I twisted my foot..." Jian Mo''s heart has begun to freeze. "I didn''t expect that the rich were still very loving, didn''t throw me money directly, and took me to a nearby hospital... You don''t know how happy I was held by him at that time..." "Jane Mo, you''ve had enough!" Chu Zixiao originally came to question Jian Mo, but finally he was deeply stabbed by her words. He held back his anger in his eyes and asked with gnashing teeth, "do you know what relationship Gu Beichen has with me?" Jane Mo''s heart tightened for a moment, as if she had been pulled by the rope. "What''s the matter? It''s none of my business? It''s good to achieve the goal... I can''t turn back. I flew to the branches and became a Phoenix." "Don''t you know he has a wife?" Jane Mo sneered, "who doesn''t know that there are many women who don''t gossip with him?" Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo in disbelief. When he received this photo sent to him by a stranger this morning, he couldn''t believe it... How could Jian Mo be such a clean person? He was eager to know the answer. He knew that she would not answer his phone and could only talk about things with a design case But in the end? What answer did he get?! "Cheap!" Chu Zixiao squeezed out two words from his teeth, and was completely angered by Jian mo. He suddenly stood up, "do you like money? OK, I''ll give you... I''ll give you whatever you want! In this way, can you come back to me?" He gnashed his teeth. "You know, I can afford it!" Jane Mo smiled, but she was crying She slowly raised her head, smiled enchanting, and said with a sneer at the corners of her mouth: "sorry, I''m not suitable for Chu Bian''s noble status... Besides, how much can you give me? Will Gu Beichen give me more?" The sound of "pa" fell and made the whole reception room very quiet. Jian Mo smiled, and Chu Zixiao stepped back in horror... He looked at his hand unbelievably. The slender, strong and bony hand was shaking. "Mo Mo, I..." "Nothing!" Jane Mo smiled more and more brightly, as if the slap didn''t know the pain. She slowly stood up, opened her pen, and then pushed the document that had just discussed the design direction, "Chu argued that if you have no objection to the design scheme, please sign!" Chu Zixiao looked at the red seal on Jian Mo''s mouth, and his eyes were full of guilt and remorse. That situation suddenly occupied all his emotions, "right..." "Chu Bian, please sign!" Jian Mo interrupted Chu Zixiao''s words, and her breath was heavy. Chu Zixiao signs quickly. He looks at Jian Mo in horror... The famous defense who has always been calm in court often becomes breathless in front of her. "Foam..." "I don''t know you so well!" Jian Mo interrupted Chu Zixiao again, "thank you for your cooperation. I''ll have someone send you..." then she took the contract and turned and walked out. But when she passed Chu Zixiao, she was held "Let go!" Jian Mo''s voice was cold and heartless, but Chu Zixiao didn''t let go, "I said let go..." every word was squeezed out from between his teeth, filled with the smell of resentment. Chu Zixiao subconsciously let go of her hand. It felt like if he didn''t let go, Jane Mo would do something bad for herself. There was no voice in the silent corridor. Jane Mo sat on the steps with the just signed design scheme... Her heart seemed to be empty at once. There was a burning tingling on his face, but that pain couldn''t equal the tingling from the heart. She leaned against the wall and looked at the front with dull eyes. Her eyes gradually lost focus... Some things, if she wanted to hide, she would only push herself into the abyss step by step. But even so, she can only bear Love? Don''t you love? Jane Mo pulled out an ugly smile like hanging on the edge of a cliff, which was full of self mockery and sadness, as if to force out all the pain in her heart. The mobile phone music suddenly sounded, gradually pulling back Jane Mo''s thoughts She looked down at the call and saw that it was Gu Beichen''s... Heart, which hurt fiercely. Then I put it in my ear. I don''t know why. I have been holding back the tears that didn''t overflow. Just for a moment, it filled my eyes, blurred my line of sight, and meandered on my cheeks... Drawing astringent pain. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. There was no expected voice of coquettish anger. There was only depression transmitted under the quiet silence, "Jane Mo?" The magnetic voice came in a low voice, just like a cello solo in the ear. Jane Mo''s tears were uncontrollable and began to fall hard. She stretched out her hand to wipe, but more and more. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo tried her best to bear it, but there was still a trace of choking in her voice. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and a pair of eagle eyes fell on the sunset at the end of the sea level. The ink pupil gradually became deep and bottomless, "what''s the matter, huh?" Jane Mo gently sucked her nose. "It''s all right, just suddenly heard your voice and was excited..." she pursed her lips, "ah Chen, I miss you..." It seems that Beichen is not so afraid of being asked by Shixian, "isn''t it Jane Mo was slightly stunned, and then reflected on what happened last night. "My mouth has been so sweet... Well, I''m waiting for you to come back and ask for guilt..." the corner of her mouth smiled slightly, "is it good to ask for guilt in bed?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips slightly hooked the radian of wiping evil, and heard that Jian Mo wanted to avoid the important and take the light, but he didn''t expose her, "well, when I come back..." Jane Mo drooped her eyes, and the fundus of her eyes was still wet, "OK..." There was a silence on the phone. Gu Beichen said slowly, "Jane Mo, if I''m by your side now, I want to hug you..." Jian Mo "Shua" for a moment, and the tears she had just collected could no longer be controlled and kept pouring out Since the accident two years ago, she has forgotten to cry. Because Chu Zixiao came back these days, she seems to be trying to make up for the missing tears in the past two years However, it is sad. At this moment, Gu Beichen''s words made her heart sour... Just a little palpitation from her heart. "Why do you want to hold me?" Jane Mo tried to ask calmly. Chapter 39 Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, but he didn''t expose Jian Mo''s sadness at the moment. He just opened his thin lips and said slowly, "my husband wants to hold his wife... Why do I need it?" As soon as Jian Mo heard this, Gu Beichen laughed out with a "puff" sound Gu Beichen is cold and overbearing outside. When he asks ten business rivals, he will give an evaluation of "terror and bloodthirsty". However, such a person, as if with Jane Mo, always makes her relaxed and happy... Although most of their time together is spent in bed! Gu Beichen hung up the phone. Mo Tong looked at the sparkling sea deeply. The eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly, and Mo Tong emitted two cold lights The original call was just... Just what? Maybe I just wanted to ask if there was any discomfort after the car accident... But when he heard the woman''s voice crying, he suddenly forgot his original intention. Want to hug her... It''s not fake! Peeping into the city in other people''s hearts has never been what he would do... It''s just inexplicable that this woman''s sadness actually affected his thoughts. Where was the alley that day and today? "Xiao Jing..." "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing stepped forward. "Book the earliest flight back to Los Angeles." Gu Beichen opened his thin lips lightly and opened his mouth lightly. There was no emotion on his cold and carved face. The clouds were light and the wind was light, so people couldn''t see what he was thinking. Xiao Jing frowned slightly. "Chen Shao, I''ll sign tomorrow morning..." he swallowed all his unspoken words in Gu Beichen''s sight. "OK, I''ll do it now." Los Angeles. Chu Zixiao and Jian mo were in the reception room, although no one was clear about it, the crisp slap and the mark on Jian Mo''s face that couldn''t be covered by powder made the whole Xiangyu talk about it from small to local. People in the design department want to care about Jian Mo, but they think it''s not good to ask this question at the moment. Xiang night pursed his mouth, looked at Jian Mo standing in front of the window through the glass, shrugged his shoulders, and the whole person was listless "Evening, do you know anything?" Ding Dang quietly moved to Xiangwan. He felt something wrong at the law firm that day. How did it directly evolve into slapping today? He turned his lips to the evening and quietly said the things circulating on the campus, "you said, if they were so in love, how could they..." "Can''t Chu Zixiao stop foaming after he goes abroad?" "But how do I feel..." Xiang night hesitated, "... Is sister Mo not to argue with Chu?" "..." Ding Dang twitched at the corner of his mouth and said, "no matter who is right or wrong, it''s wrong for a man to beat a woman!" The designer looked down with a deep sigh On this day, the air pressure in the whole office was a little low. Jane Mo is not in the mood to pay attention to the gossip in the company. It seems that there has been all kinds of gossip since she joined the company for internship. When she came home from work, Jane Mo soaked herself in a jacuzzi and emptied her mind Chu Zixiao''s slap made her suddenly feel a little want to laugh. She slapped him that day and returned today... Well, it''s good! Can''t you say you''re angry? How is that possible? However, it seems that he is not so angry She stimulated him in that way. She knew that he was waiting for her to explain, but she didn''t know good or bad and had to hook up with his favorite little uncle. How could he not be angry? Slowly closed her eyes, Jane Mo slipped down and buried herself in the water Gradually, the air was pulled away from her body, and the feeling of suffocation and drowning made her head awake. She has always been a cruel person, not only to others, but also to herself! The next day, the weather in Los Angeles changed slightly. Early in the morning, the weather was a little overcast, and the sun became particularly weak... Which made the atmosphere of autumn more and more strong. Because it was the weekend, Jane Mo didn''t get up There seemed to be a happy event in lanze garden. The sound of firecrackers "crackled" disturbed her a little irritable. Pull up the quilt and bury yourself in it. Unfortunately... It doesn''t help. Jane Mo reluctantly lifted the quilt and got up with a sigh like compromise... After washing, she went downstairs to the kitchen to make breakfast for herself. When Gu Beichen didn''t have to go to work, she mostly used to be a volunteer or go to the hospital to look after her mother, but today she promised Su Junli to be his girlfriend. She simply went out alone and found a coffee shop A book, a piece of music, a cup of coffee... She left yesterday''s sadness to yesterday. At almost four o''clock in the afternoon, Su Junli''s phone came "Where is it?" Su Junli''s voice was soft and moist. "I''ll pick you up, huh?" How dare Jane Mo let Su Jun leave and pick her up in the villa area of lanzeyuan? And because it''s hard to take a taxi over there, I came out ahead of time with foresight After reporting the location, Su Jun arrived in half an hour. "Do you mind if I give my partner a dress?" Su Junli asked Jane Mo, who was wearing her seat belt. Jane Mo shrugged, "don''t mind, because that''s your facade..." Su Junli respected her. She joked... They looked at each other and smiled. He started the car and went to the famous store. Jian Mo chose a goose yellow dress wrapped around the chest and knees, which is neither too arrogant nor too simple. It is just right with Su Junli''s temperament. "Someone said... Are you beautiful?" Su Junli looked at Jian Mo and said with a smile. "People often say that." Su Junli smiled. Jian Mo''s words were very confident... A beautiful woman should have her confidence. The charity concert was held by the Su family in the north of the city and at the Su family manor. Although it is small, the Su family has a great influence in Los Angeles and is even more important in the music industry... In addition, it is the first time Su Jun has participated in such a banquet since returning home, and many people have come. The media are waiting outside the Sujia manor. The people who come tonight are either rich or expensive, and there are many famous stars... The flash in the hands of the media has not stopped, one by one pressing the shutter like a cramp. "Su Jun''s car..." I don''t know who screamed in the crowd of reporters. Suddenly, everyone was crazy shooting at a white double row BMW sports car. "There are reflective settings on the car, so you can''t get a clear picture of your face outside..." Su Jun looked at Jian Mo and smiled at the corners of his mouth. For him, she can always see through her mind. Jane has said she has no way to make complaints about it. Who let the man around Wen Ya be a psychic master? The car was parked in the special parking space of Su''s house. Su Jun opened the door to Jian Mo with a gentleman''s, stretched out his hand... And made an invitation gesture. Jane Mo was not hypocritical, put her hand on his hand and got out of the car No doubt, even if there were no reporters in the manor, Su Junli''s appearance became scorched. "Who is the woman beside her?" "Good looking..." "I heard that Mr. Su intends to let Su Jun leave his fiancee tonight... What does he mean by bringing a girlfriend here?" "Is this a ''mini'' concert?" Jane Mo can''t laugh or cry. "I can''t help it." Su Junli sighed helplessly and joked with Jian Mo, "let''s go..." Jane Mo nodded slightly. Under the traction of Su Junli, her hand naturally rested on his arm and walked to the main house with his steps However, at the moment of turning around, Jian Mo''s footsteps froze in place... His eyes turned to a deep and bottomless look, and gradually pursed his lips. Chapter 40 "What''s the matter?" Su Junli felt Jian Mo''s hesitation and asked with concern. Jane Mo converged her eyes, pulled the corners of her mouth and shook her head. Then she entered the main house with Su Junli She didn''t expect to see Chu Zixiao here, but it didn''t seem to be an abrupt thing. After all, he is the son of Chu group and the only heir... It is normal for him to attend the activities of upper class society. As Su Jun''s female companion, she has to be "booed" by everyone... Jian Mo is generous. Although Su junbei is gentle, he always shows a slight alienation. Naturally, no one asks deeply about the relationship between him and her. "What to drink?" After sending off a circle of people, Su Junli asked softly. Jane Mo returned to her senses and responded with a smile: "orange juice!" "Well," Su Jun replied, "you go to the rest area to have a rest first, and I''ll get it... And I''ll get you some food by the way, huh?" Jian Mo nodded and turned to the rest area. After Su Jun left, he went to the catering area to get food. The talent sat down for two minutes and was covered by a figure... Jian Mo raised his eyes and looked up at Chu Zixiao''s complex line of sight. "If Chu debate is to tease me or ridicule me, I don''t think this occasion is suitable..." Jian Mo said faintly, "if you don''t think yesterday''s slap is enough, look back and wait at any time." Then she decided not to pay attention to him and closed her eyes. Chu Zixiao''s eyes narrowed slightly, "foam..." "Chu Bian, my boyfriend is coming." Jian Mo interrupted him, took a breath secretly, pulled the corners of his mouth and looked at Chu Zixiao, "personally, I don''t think it''s very good for you to get along with me alone!" "A Gu Beichen can''t satisfy you?" Chu Zixiao''s handsome face has a complex expression and is angry under forbearance. Jian Mo is also very satisfied that a casual sentence will annoy Chu Zixiao, who has always been calm and calm... Xu answered that sentence, the breakup of lovers is doomed to the indifference of enemies. "Whatever you think..." Jane Mo is a little tired. "Sorry, I want to be alone." "Mo Mo -" Chu Zixiao slightly clenched his hand. "Chu Shao, as a gentleman... We should not continue the topic when the lady is unwilling." Su Junli didn''t know when to come back. A faint voice spilled over the beautiful lips. At the same time, he put the orange juice and food in front of Jian Mo, "I don''t know what you like to eat. Just take some." After sweeping the food, Jane Mo said with a smile, "I like them all..." it''s not a scene, it''s true! For Su Junli''s accuracy of her preference, she felt a little hairy. "Just like it." Su Jun got up with a smile and looked at Chu Zixiao... They were cold and soft, but no one could say that their momentum was one point worse. Jane Mo looked at the two people facing each other, and her head hurt more and more. "If Chu Shao can come today, Su''s house will shine." "You''re welcome..." "Chu Shao didn''t bring his girlfriend today?" Chu Zixiao''s eyes were slightly cold and slowly opened his mouth: "my girlfriend lent it to other men, so I can only go alone." "Really?" Su Junli chuckled, "it''s better to stay with your girlfriend. If you can''t stay with her, it means it''s not your own... Chu Shao, do you think so?" "That''s not necessarily." Chu Zixiao also smiled and slightly raised his eyebrows. "Some people are lost. I always want a lamp to guide her back." "I''m afraid the line of sight is always ahead... Even if there is a lamp behind, I can''t see it!" Chu Zixiao smiled, but it was very light and light. "No matter how far people go... They won''t forget the way they came." You come and I go, but in a moment, there is a layer of hostility between the two men, which condenses the surrounding air and makes people have some difficulty breathing. Jane Mo ate heartlessly, as if the conversation between two men had nothing to do with her... But what came into her mouth was clearly what she loved to eat, but it became difficult to swallow. "Sorry, I''ll go to the bathroom." Jian Mo said to Su Junli that the man had got up and left. She was afraid to stay. The two men crushed her heart. "Three little know her?" Chu Zixiao suddenly asked. Su Junli smiled, "better than you think..." "As far as I know, I met with Mo Mo during the concert hall design project?" Yes, yes. Su Jun smiled from the corner of his mouth, neither nodded nor shook his head... It seemed right to say so under the lack of memory. But how could he have just met her? "I know what Chu Shao wants to say," Su Jun said slightly from the corner of his mouth. "It''s just that if one person''s existence causes harm to another person, I think it''s necessary to choose to avoid... Chu Shao, are you right?" Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but smiled slightly at the corners of his mouth. That smile showed a thought-provoking emotion... I thought I came back, but I just needed to ask why I broke up at the beginning. But it turns out that the problems he needs to face are wave after wave Whether it''s my uncle or Su Junli, today''s Jian mo... It''s really not simple! Jane Mo looked at herself in the mirror with a sad face. Chu Zixiao will keep sarcasm and ridicule her... Sad, but can only accept it. If you have to send her a word with Chu Zixiao, she has only four words... Deep love and shallow edge! From that stormy night, their tracks have gone the opposite way After psychological construction, Jian Mo went out of the bathroom and entered the meeting room... At the moment, there are more and more people, drinking and preparing everywhere and rubbing their clothes and temples. Jian Mo went back to the rest area. Su Junli and Chu Zixiao were still facing each other. Seeing her coming back, they both restrained the fierce breath that filled their bodies Suddenly, there was a agitation at the door... That agitation seemed to be contagious, and everyone looked at it. At the door, Gu Beichen wrapped his tall posture in a black suit cut in style, and came in with a pocket in one hand... He didn''t squint, and the arrogance overflowing from his bones was like an ancient king. His domineering appearance is destined to be surrounded by stars and become the focus of attention. "Unexpectedly, Chen Shao will come..." "The Su family''s face is really big!" Jian Mo''s newly built heart wall collapsed at the moment Gu Beichen came in. She even forgot to breathe and didn''t know how to react... There was only one thought in her mind. Isn''t he still abroad? I didn''t hear he was coming back on the phone yesterday... How could he appear here? Chu Zixiao is beside her. How did she put herself in such an embarrassing state that she can''t turn back Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes moved slightly, and his sight finally fell on Jian mo. his eyes were slightly deep. While he nodded slightly with the person who greeted him, he walked towards this side with steady and powerful steps Jane Mo''s heart began to tremble and her breathing was so short that she seemed to be dying... She wanted to escape, but her feet seemed to be filled with lead, so she couldn''t lift them up. Su Junli found the wrong of Jian Mo, saw her face a little pale, slightly frowned... Looked at Gu Beichen along her line of sight, and was confused in her heart. "Uncomfortable?" Su Junli asked softly, "do you want to go to the guest room to have a rest first?" "Huh?" Jane Mo''s brain is confused. She doesn''t know what Su Junli said. She just subconsciously makes a sound and deflects her head reflexively. Who knows that her lips just slip over Su Junli''s face, who wants to ask again. The world seems to be quiet for an instant Because Gu Beichen walked towards this side, everyone''s eyes fell here... No doubt, Jianmo''s "ambiguous" move surprised everyone. Chu Zixiao slightly sank his sight and frowned. Gu Beichen even narrowed his eyes slightly. When the footsteps settled on one side of the three, the ink pupil looked at Jian Mo calmly like the calm sea But, in the dark, the waves are already surging, as if to devour everything around at any time! Chapter 41 Gu Beichen always knew that Jian Mo was very beautiful. This woman was born to hook men''s eyes Today, she is wearing a goose yellow knee length dress. The design of the bra makes her gullies particularly attractive. Her slender white and straight legs are also charming against the background of the short dress and the pair of 10 cm high silver duckbill shoes. Long hair is loosely coiled without too much decoration. It''s just a small diamond earring and a clavicle chain, which elevates simplicity to a low-key and luxurious realm. Beautiful, beautiful However, his wife is beside other men... Gu Beichen''s thin lips are hooked with a smile like nothing. A pair of eagle eyes look at Jian Mo, but it is deep, like a thousand year silent ancient lake! Feeling Jian Mo''s resistance to Gu Beichen, Su Jun couldn''t leave his voice and color to block her in front, "Chen Shao, haven''t seen you for a long time." "Jun Mo glanced back at Jane''s girlfriend for a long time," Gu Mo said At the exit of such a question, Jane Mo''s heart suddenly "cluttered", and her hand consciously clenched her handbag. "It''s a friend!" Su Junli''s answer was just right, not heavy or light, but it also marked that the relationship was not shallow. Gu Beichen raised a faint radian on one side of his thin lip, but made a gentle "Oh" sound, which made people unable to hear his real emotion Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but slightly frowned at Gu Beichen... If that picture is true, is Beichen really a little ambiguous with Jian Mo? Such an occasion is not suitable to ask... Even if he is angry with Jane Mo, he can feel her fear at the moment. Yesterday, she clearly said that she tried her best to lure Beichen. Is this fear because Su Jun left, or for what? "Beichen, shouldn''t you be abroad?" Chu Zixiao broke the temporary silence. Gu Beichen looked at Chu Zixiao and said, "someone said he missed me... And he came back." The tone of his remark was too flat, as if it were a joke. However, Jian Mo''s heart sank more and more... She didn''t know that Gu Beichen''s words were true. However, when he said this, she knew it was deliberately said to her. "Oh?" Chu Zixiao was surprised. In order to ease the atmosphere, he jokingly asked, "can''t it be what my little aunt said?" Gu Beichen chuckled. He didn''t say yes, nor did he say no... just when Yu Guang slipped over Jian Mo, he put a touch on the bottom of her eyes and included the injury he had never seen in his eyes. That kind of injury is different from that in the alley that day. It seems that something is stuck... Like a lump in the throat. "I''ll say hello to old su..." Gu Beichen said faintly, "San Shao, don''t you mind leading the way?" Su Junli doesn''t want Jian Mo and Chu Zixiao to be alone. He doesn''t feel at ease... However, Gu Beichen said that as the master, it''s hard to refuse, "nature!" Then he looked at Jian Mo, "wait for me here, I''ll come out later..." Jian Mo felt numb on her scalp and thought that as long as Gu Beichen could leave, it would be good... She nodded quickly after hearing Su Junli''s inquiry. But she felt that she was too urgent. She could only pull the corners of her mouth and say, "you''re busy, I''ll help myself." Su Jun left with a warm smile. His eyes slipped through Chu Zixiao. After a hint of warning, he left with Gu Beichen "Doesn''t it mean that Gu Beichen can even touch the porcelain to attract him? Why... When people are in front of him, they pretend to be shy?" Chu Zixiao''s voice slowly overflowed the lips, with a touch of complex emotion. There is jealousy and resentment, but more self mockery and heartache that cannot be explained. Jane Mo pursed her lower lip, "excuse me!" She just put down these two words and turned and walked outside... She urgently needed to breathe. Chu Zixiao didn''t follow her, but looked at Jian Mo''s back with deep eyes... As she went farther and farther, his heart became deeper and deeper. The night breeze is a little cool, because the charity concert starts at 8:30, and most of the time ahead is for everyone to communicate or eat... At the moment, there are people outside. No one will pay attention to the lonely figure of Jian Mo on the garden bench on the side. Today''s pair of shoes is a little high. When Jian Mo saw no one, she simply took off her shoes aside... Her feet just stepped on the lawn and felt the slightest coolness, while calming her confused thoughts slowly. Su Jun promised to leave entirely because he thanked him and really regarded him as a friend. However, she didn''t expect to meet Chu Zixiao here, and she didn''t expect Gu Beichen to come back Taking the mobile phone, Jane Mo sent a text message to Li Xiaoyue, roughly describing the situation just now. Li Xiaoyue replied quickly: Niu, I have nothing else to give you except sympathy... Good luck! "..." Jian Mo looked at this message and was unable to laugh or cry, but it was the same. "Isn''t it cool to step on the lawn?" A voice came from the top of the head. Before Jian Mo could see it, the figure had squatted down, "your feet are cold, so it''s easy to get sick." Chu Zixiao picked up Jian Mo''s feet and was not afraid of being dirty. He stroked the grass foam off the soles of her feet, and then wanted to get her shoes Jian Mo suddenly reacted and hurriedly wanted to take her feet back... However, Chu Zixiao''s strength also increased with the trend. He simply didn''t let her shrink back and put her shoes on. Chu Zixiao didn''t look at Jian Mo''s frightened face, so he went to get another foot... However, Jian Mo ran away quickly this time, and he had put his foot into another shoe. Raising his eyes, Chu Zixiao looked deeply at the panic at the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes and slowly opened his mouth: "what happened? You want to break up with me? And for what... Would you do this now?" "No why... The answer that should be given to you is not already given to you." Jane Mo suddenly got up and wanted to leave. However, when shaking the step, the arm moved slightly, and the wrist was shackled by Chu Zixiao. "Chu Zixiao, if you have to embarrass me... Just treat me like this?" Jane Mo was a little frightened. She was afraid that when Gu Beichen came out, she would see the entanglement between them. Chu Zixiao didn''t let go. "What are you afraid of? Su Junli or Gu Beichen?" Jane Mo glanced, "what does it have to do with you? Let go..." as she said, she tried to shake it and was even more worried. However, often what you are afraid of will come Mingming and Su junbei go together to find Gu Beichen, the son of old man su. They don''t know when they have stood at the door and their eyes are still looking at them. Jian Mo became more and more frightened and didn''t even know what to do... She could only look at Chu Zixiao with a request in her eyes, "even if I beg you, let go!" "You really have something to do with Beichen?" Chu Zixiao made a sound, and his eyes were hurt. At the same time, his sight had fallen on Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen stood still in front of them, and the ink pupil fell slightly on their entangled hands... Because of their drooping eyes, Chu Zixiao and Jian Mo could not see the murkiness gradually overflowing from the bottom of his eyes. As soon as Jian Mo''s heart was cold, she couldn''t care about anything else, so she twisted and broke free from the clamp of Chu Zixiao "Zixiao," Gu Beichen said slowly at the right time, "women are used to hurt..." he said, his eyes have been raised, and there is a overflow of anger in the depths of his calm and indifferent eyes, but he doesn''t know whether it is to Chu Zixiao or Jian mo Chapter 42 Jane Mo closed her eyes and clenched her teeth secretly... She was powerless about the chaotic situation tonight, so she had to accept it silently. "Beichen?" Chu Zixiao''s eyes looked at Gu Beichen deeply, "do you know Mo Mo?" "Foam?" Gu Beichen said softly, what a intimate title! Gu Beichen''s mouth was slightly scratched, and if there was a faint smile like nothing, the smile was stiff in the corner of his mouth and didn''t reach the bottom of his eyes, "well, I know..." he said that he was ambivalent. Jane Mo''s heart trembled badly by his calm words, and even her body trembled involuntarily. "Cold?" Gu Beichen''s eyes lightly moved and fell on Jian mo. seeing that her face was very white and the corners of her mouth smiled, "I''m not in good health and don''t know how to cherish myself... It''s so important to love beauty?" He said so, but he had taken off his suit and naturally put it on Jane Mo''s body. The familiar faint mint aroma made Jian Mo freeze in place, and she couldn''t move. Even, she didn''t dare to look at the expressions of Beichen and Chu Zixiao... It seemed that she could only wait quietly for the storm to come. Chu Zixiao frowned and looked at Gu Beichen. He knew what Beichen was... Women around him were just looking at flowers. When would he be so gentle to a woman? Gu Beichen didn''t seem to know that Chu Zixiao was looking at him. He just closed his suit and said vaguely in his tone: "you''re sick, don''t expect me to love you..." "Boom", Jane Mo only felt a sullen thunder exploding in her head... Gu Beichen was intentional, he was intentional! Such a voice roared, but Jane Mo couldn''t say anything. She could only accept Gu Beichen''s action of folding her suit Yu Guang glimpses Su Junli, and Jian Mo suddenly wants to laugh... Just inside and now outside, it seems that the situation is doomed. "Mo Mo," Su Junli shouted as if he didn''t know what had happened, "cold?" He naturally took off Jian Mo''s suit and gave it to Gu Beichen. "Thank you, Chen. Don''t care about my female companion..." he said. He had taken off his suit coat and put it on Jian Mo, and took her shoulder, showing some possessiveness. The atmosphere is strange and outrageous. Three men and one woman At the moment, there are not many people near the garden, but it doesn''t mean there is no one... Someone has looked curiously this way, and even began to whisper. "It''s almost time," Su Junli said with a thin smile from beginning to end. "Why don''t you go first, Chen Shao and Chu Shao?" No one moved. Even, Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao looked at Jian mo... Or their eyes fell on the hand of Su Junli holding her. Jane Mo was looked like a needle by such a sharp and deep line of sight, but she could only hold it hard. Gu Beichen calmly converged his eyes, but if there seemed to be nothing, he gently hooked the corner of his lips and turned to the venue without saying anything Chu Zixiao then raised his steps, but when he left, he stared deeply at Jian Mo, with a complex in his eyes. "Beichen!" Chu Zixiao caught up with Gu Beichen and walked side by side, "do you know Mo Mo?" "As you can see..." Gu Beichen didn''t avoid much. Chu Zixiao frowned slightly, "you..." "We''ll talk about it later." Gu Beichen spoke faintly. No matter what the relationship between Beichen and Momo is, Chu Zixiao knows it''s not suitable to talk about it in the Su family. The charity concert was held at 8:30 on time... Because it was only a small-scale charity measure, it was not officially held in the concert hall. But even so, the room is still full of guests. The Su family is a cultural family and plays an important role in Los Angeles and even the whole country... Especially in this generation, Su Junli is arrogant as a musical genius. Everyone is wondering whether Su Jun will play today, but they just think about it. They know that he will not participate in such an occasion But even so, each piece of music has received a high amount of donations... At the end of what everyone thought was a small but immersive concert, Su Jun left the stage. "Promise a friend that if she attends this charity concert today, she will play a track for her..." Su Junli''s voice is as soft as the solo sound of the violin at night. His eyes pass through the flow of people and fall on Jian Mo lightly. "She''s coming, I promise!" Su Junli''s words made the whole hall boo for a while. Even the Su family frowned slightly and looked at each other. Some tacitly knew that he was for the female companion around him tonight. Old man Su turned around curiously and looked at Jian Mo with the eyes precipitated by years. He couldn''t help laughing and said, "you look good." Slender fingers crossed the black-and-white keys, while Su Jun looked back, the soft music slowly overflowed... A familiar "to Alice" seemed to pull all listeners into the dreamy world under his fingertips. Jane Mo forgot the time and everything, but her eyes fell on the strong light hitting Su Junli If today''s Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao are thorns on the tip of her heart. At the moment, the spring breeze can make her feel at ease. Su Junli''s hands moved flexibly on the black-and-white keys, and every move showed elegance and nobility. His eyes sometimes slipped over Jian Mo''s position, and his smile at the corners of his mouth was evil and crazy... That kind of smile fell on Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao''s eyes, which was a little dazzling. A song fell when Su Junli''s fingers were slightly raised, and everyone was still immersed in his music "Although San Shao said it was a private gift, he didn''t get paid for his useless work..." Gu Beichen slowly said, "since tonight is a charity concert, I naturally want to thank San Shao for her..." his voice was calm and condensed, "how about 10 million?" "Hiss" came, and everyone looked at Gu Beichen incredulously... No one thought that his hand was 10 million. Everyone was so surprised by such a number that they didn''t think about his words. All the people in the audience, only Jian Mo''s face suddenly changed... Her hand was clenched in an instant, and her apricot eyes looked at Gu Beichen with a trace of panic. Gu Beichen''s eyes slipped over Jian Mo''s pale face and took a panoramic view of her horror... But at that moment, his ink pupil became familiar. She''s afraid he''ll disclose their relationship? Oh, is it for Zixiao or Su Junli? Su Jun left his station, got up and walked slowly down. He stood still in front of Gu Beichen. His gentle smile never stopped. "So, thank Chen Shao for his support." "Yes..." Gu Beichen took back his eyes on Jian Mo, and his cold face was so indifferent. "Oh?" Su Junli chuckled, "Chen Shao, I don''t understand this!" Gu Beichen gently hooked the corner of his lips. The smile was not worth the fundus of his eyes, but just frozen in the corner of his mouth, revealing force. "My wife is in a bad mood these two days. Smile for Boqing... 10 million, it''s worth it!" As soon as this remark came out, not only did Su Jun slightly frown, but even Chu Zixiao, who was standing aside, stared at Gu Beichen It seems that both of them don''t understand this. However, there was something in my heart that wanted to break out... But I got stuck in my throat and couldn''t spit it out. Chapter 43 Su Junli came from a famous family in the end. After a moment of slight stunned, he recovered calmly and gently, "Chen Shao, this is... It''s impolite!" The words sounded calm, but anyone could hear it. There was a faint anger. "Oh? Really?!" Gu Beichen just smiled faintly, and then said, "I have something else to do, excuse me..." after that, he came forward to say hello to old man Su, and then turned away with one hand. From beginning to end, he didn''t look at Jane... As if he didn''t know her at all. Su Jun left his eyes and gradually looked at the proud figure of Wei''an slowly leaving, and the smile on the corner of his mouth was slightly dignified Whispers came from around, and some people asked the people around them in doubt, "is Mrs. Gu here today? Why didn''t you see it?" Some people have begun to look for it, but they can''t find the result... It''s just that someone''s eyes fell on Jane Mo, but they just moved away in an instant. No one thought Su Junli''s female companion would be the rumored Mrs. Gu, but since Mrs. Gu was present, why didn''t Chen Shao leave together? Under such doubts, everyone only thought that Mrs. Gu was blindly mysterious, so she didn''t leave with Chen Shao, but no one put this goal on Jane mo Only Su Junli and Chu Zixiao! Master Su''s sharp eyes glided across the venue and signaled the people of the Su family. At present, everyone clearly began to greet the people who came to the charity concert... After a while, the topic was deflected. Su Jun looked for an opportunity and came to Jian Mo, "I''ll take you back?" A tired Jian Mo nodded and quietly left with Su Jun Li... Just met Chu Zixiao waiting in the parking lot. Su Junli knows the relationship between Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao... After several contacts at night, Su Junli has roughly guessed that the relationship between Chu Zixiao and Jian Mo is not simple. However, this is not simple... Now there is a Gu Beichen in the middle! "The rumor is that you, Mrs. Gu?" Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo with deep and sharp eyes. His voice sounded calm, but actually the undercurrent was surging. Jane Mo didn''t answer or deny it! Chu Zixiao smiled and smiled bitterly He looked at Jian Mo with complicated eyes, and his sad and angry voice hoarsely overflowed his throat, "Jian Mo, how can you... How can you?!" In the end, he yelled, "why is it him?" If the photo of Gu Beichen holding Jian Mo for medical treatment yesterday made his heart ache, the truth today is that it completely tore apart all his persistence The person he loves married his little uncle and became his little aunt... Ha ha, what a ridiculous thing? Why does this embarrass him?! Jian Mo''s hands were cold. She pursed her lips and looked at Chu Zixiao. Everything cracked from the bottom of her eyes... As if the previous ridicule was just a means for him to get close to her again. But now, everything is broken... The lover married another man, even his little uncle! Jane Mo''s nose has begun to sour. She knows that she can''t avoid some things, but she broke out uncontrollably under such circumstances. "I''ll take you back first." Su Junli said calmly, "Chu Shao, I hope you understand that this place is not suitable for questioning... Of course, if you want Mo Mo to be exposed to gossip or deeper harm, it''s another matter." Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo with scarlet eyes, "I''ll take you back!" "No..." Jian Mo subconsciously refused. Su Junli pulled Jian Mo slightly behind him, "Chu Shao, Mo Mo is my girlfriend today... Please respect yourself!" "It''s ridiculous that three young people can use married women as female companions... Oh, it''s ridiculous!" Chu Zixiao is like a trapped beast, trying to find a break. Su Junli''s face was slightly heavy, "no matter how ridiculous... I won''t hurt a woman with sharp words." After that, he didn''t stop this time. He opened the front passenger''s door and let Jane Mo in. Then he bypassed the front of the car and went to the driver''s seat. Start, drive away... All actions are as calm as clouds and flowing water. Just like losing her soul, Jian Mo only acted by Su Jun''s action from beginning to end... But at the moment when the car left, her vision fell on the reversing mirror... Looking at Chu Zixiao''s figure farther and farther away. Something gushed out of the eyes, winding down and fainted at the corners of the mouth... The salty taste was like the nerve of Jane Mo pricked by the tip of a needle. It was so painful that she couldn''t breathe, but she forgot to shout pain. The car is hanging quietly Su Jun looked away at Jian Mo, endured it, and opened his mouth, "is it true?" Jane Mo didn''t speak, just nodded outside the car. There was bitterness slipping through the corners of Su Junli''s mouth, showing melancholy. "Can you take me back to lanzeyuan?" Jane Mo spoke faintly. Everything tonight caught her by surprise. She thought Gu Beichen could escape tonight without saying... However, it was obvious that the cold man didn''t want her to feel better. First it was an ambiguous move, then it was a daydream... Ha ha, in a word, whether Chu Zixiao or Su Junli, he was beaten back to reality. She is Gu Beichen''s wife. Even if she doesn''t love... She can''t be touched by others! Su Junli looked at the tired Jian Mo and nodded, "OK." Su Junli was in a heavy mood. Although he had just returned home, he didn''t know much about Gu Beichen''s affair. "Mo Mo, you and him..." he suddenly stopped his voice. What''s his position? What''s his right to ask? At first, he thought at least he didn''t lose at the starting line... But now?! Jian Mo was not in the mood to guess what Su Junli was thinking at the moment, or even what Gu Beichen represented before he left The car stopped outside lanze park. Jian Mo lightly put down a "thank you" and untied his seat belt to get off "Mo Mo......" Su Jun left his mouth and looked at her with deep eyes. Jane Mo turned back and tried to pull a smile, "I''m fine." "I can explain with Chen Shao..." Su Junli was a little urgent. "I shouldn''t have brought you here today and put you in an embarrassing place." Jane Mo smiled and shook her head. "I''m a little tired. I went first..." after a slight meal, she still said sincerely, "I hope concealment will not hinder the road of our friendship." Su Junli''s body stiffened slightly. He heard the potential meaning of Jian mo... "friendship" was a forced or kind refusal? "No..." two words spilled over Su Jun''s lips, with a heavy self mockery. Jane Mo smiled and got out of the car and entered lanze garden without saying anything. The arrogant Spyker stopped at the parking space at the door, but the villa was dark and there was no light Jane Mo''s heart congealed involuntarily... She opened the door and went in. Subconsciously, she wanted to touch the switch to turn on the light. However, before touching her hand, she heard a "bang". While the door was closed, her whole person had been strongly pressed against the door Without warning, the rude kiss came overwhelming... Jian Mo felt a pain and wanted to push away, but her hands were held high on her head. "Ah... Ah Chen... Um... Gu Bei... Bei Chen... Um..." Jian Mo was dizzy by such a strong way. She subconsciously tilted her head to avoid, but no doubt, her behavior completely angered Gu Beichen! Chapter 44 The overwhelming kisses are not gentle at all, but bloodthirsty and violent... Jian Mo''s resistance at the beginning becomes ridiculous under the control of Gu Beichen, and finally can only bear it silently. Didn''t she predict what happened in Su''s manor today that she would meet the storm when she came back? The clothes didn''t fade, they just brushed away Gu Beichen is just like crazy. In the dark, the eagle''s eyes are as dark as the ink space outside. There is no color at all... How dare this woman hook three and four outside? One is Su sanshao in the north of the city, and the other is his nephew... Good, good, good! He put down his foreign affairs, but couldn''t hear her cry and rushed back... Without sleep, he went back to the company for a remote conference. I thought I could come back early to accompany her, but I threw myself into the air! Let Xiao Jing check her whereabouts, and finally said that he was attending a dinner at Su''s house... He followed her eagerly. In the end... This woman can handle two men easily and even cause disputes... OK, OK, that''s great! With great anger, Gu Beichen''s action is faster and deeper. The rage under punishment makes Jian Mo feel no comfort, but only pain Also because of such a strong collision, her head kept hitting the door. Her head, which was slightly dizzy after the accident, completely fainted. "Jane Mo, how dare you?" Gu Beichen''s voice was filled with Sen Leng''s anger. "Are you going to give me a green hat if I spread gossip outside?" Jian Mo was numb with pain, as if all the actions were just subconscious, "I didn''t..." there was fatigue in her hoarse voice, and even more disheartened despair. Whether Chu Zixiao or Gu Beichen at the moment, she has a feeling that her heart is torn "Jane Mo, every time she doesn''t want to go to the eldest sister, it''s always because of Zixiao, isn''t it?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and two pure lights were emitted from the bottom of his eyes. Jane Mo didn''t answer. Gu Beichen fiercely bumped himself into her deepest place, showing more and more anger. "What''s your relationship with Zixiao?" Gu Beichen asked coldly. Jane Mo is crazy. She looks at Gu Beichen''s indifferent eyes. Such indifference makes her heart suddenly cold, "Gu Beichen, what do you want to hear?" Her voice couldn''t help amplifying, "what''s the relationship between Chu Zixiao and me? Are you satisfied with the relationship? Ah -" Jane Mo only felt that the excitement and pain in her body made her whole nerves lift up. While the scream overflowed, Gu Beichen acted like he was going to kill her. "Gu Beichen, I broke up with him when I married you..." Jian Mo shed tears and said softly, "don''t force me, okay?!" Her voice was hoarse and filled with despair, and tears poured out uncontrollably. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s tears. In front of him, he saw her real face for the first time... However, he clearly knew that it was not for him, but for Chu Zixiao. After quickly moving a few times and releasing himself, Gu Beichen retreated out. He looked at his body slowly sliding from the door panel to the ground because he had no support. A touch of astringent pain slipped in his heart, but it soon disappeared. "Even if you don''t love me, when I''m Gu Beichen''s wife, you... Can only be my woman." Gu Beichen coldly put down this sentence, and the man turned and went upstairs. When Zeng Gu took a shower on the floor, he just ignored him and took a shower. The night at the beginning of autumn is cool, and the cold on the floor is gradually poured into the body from the skin... Jane foam is like a broken doll, and life is completely evacuated. The corners of her mouth gradually made a mockery of herself. She always tried to leave a trace of dignity after selling herself, but what happened in the end? Just because of this dignity, I completely put myself into hell! Hehe... Jane Mo, admit it. From beginning to end, you hope you can be the same as before. However, after that night, you have lost everything. What are you still insisting on? Chu Zixiao''s love is Gu Beichen''s contract... In fact, you are just a loser under fate! ¡­¡­ When Su Jun returned to the Su family manor, the guests had left one after another "Third young master, the old man asked you to come back and go to his study." The housekeeper, uncle Zhuang, said with some worry, "the old man''s face is a little bad." "I see." Su Junli nodded, "thank you, uncle Zhuang." Then he went to the study. "Dong Dong!" "Come in!" Su Jun left the door and went in. The purpose was that Su Zhenqi was standing in front of the window. The pipe in his hand was emitting a curl of smoke, and his whole body was filled with the calm precipitated by years. "Grandpa!" Su Jun left and closed the door. Su Zhenqi turned slowly and motioned Su Jun to leave. After sitting down, he sat down on the sofa. "What''s the matter with that woman tonight?" Su Junli was silent and then said, "friend..." "Friends?" Su Zhen snorted coldly, "Jun Li, have you been abroad for several years?" "Well..." Su Jun replied. "There are many celebrities here tonight. Do you have anything you like?" Su Zhenqi seemed to suddenly change the topic. Su Junli was silent. "Grandpa..." he was a little helpless, "Jian Mo and I are just friends." After a slight meal, seeing the resistance on the old man''s face, he sighed helplessly, "Grandpa, Jianmo is the little girl of that year." Su Zhenqi first frowned, then looked at Su Junli fiercely, saw him nod slightly, and there was a strange emotion in the bottom of his eyes, "is it her?!" Su Junli nodded. "I didn''t recognize it at first sight. She wanted to participate in the design of the concert hall... Later, I inadvertently saw the mark left by the scar behind her ear, and I knew it was her." Su Zhenqi was in a complicated mood, but he still sank his face and said, "tonight, er chenshao means to make it clear that Jane Mo is Mrs. Gu... A married woman, how is it appropriate for you to be with her?" Su Junli couldn''t laugh or cry. "Grandpa, I didn''t know at first... But now we''re just friends." "Hum, if only you really think so." Su Zhenqi still wrung, "Gu Beichen has always been a ruthless owner... Although the emperor doesn''t involve the cultural field, it''s still very simple if he really wants to destroy a person." Su Junli smiled. "Grandpa, the more you live, the more you go back..." he joked, "don''t say whether Mrs. Gu is favored or not, even if she is favored... Will Gu Beichen fight for a woman like this?" Su Zhenqi said coldly, "you minor in psychology. Can you explain Gu Beichen''s behavior tonight?" Su Jun left and immediately frowned... He didn''t want to think about it, but Gu Beichen''s possessiveness tonight was too obvious. Suddenly, Su Junli secretly rejoiced. Fortunately, she didn''t let the media in this time, otherwise... What happened tonight, whether everyone knows it''s Jian Mo or not, is a kind of harm to her. Chapter 45 When Gu Beichen returned to his bedroom, Jian Mo was not in bed... When he came in, he looked downstairs and there was no one. With a slight frown, Gu Beichen''s cold face was as cold as carving. He turned and went to the bathroom Turn on the light and frown instantly when the remaining light of your sight touches the bath... I saw half of Jian Mo''s face exposed outside the water and her hair floating on it, with a breath of "death". Gu Beichen''s face suddenly changed, strode forward and fished out Jian Mo, "Jian Mo, Jian mo... Mo''er..." No one responded. Gu Beichen''s face was very white and raised his hand towards Jian Mo''s nose... The faint breath made his heart drop instantly. Jian Mo seemed to feel the breath of condensation, slowly opened his eyes and shouted powerlessly: "ah Chen..." Gu Beichen held her horizontally with a frozen face, casually wiped the water stains on her body and put her on the bed. "Hmm..." a whimper spilled over some white lips. Jian Mo slowly opened his eyes and looked at Gu Beichen vaguely, but... His eyes were lax and there was no focus. "Do you want to die?" Gu Beichen''s voice is sinister. Jane Mo slightly fanned her eyes and said with a tired face, "I''m just taking a bath..." she was dizzy, "ah Chen, I have a headache..." she didn''t know clearly. People had gradually fallen into a coma. Feeling something wrong with Jian Mo, Gu Beichen took his mobile phone and called, "come to lanze garden." He didn''t give the other party a chance to talk and hung up directly. Li Yunze came quickly. Listening to Gu Beichen''s tone, it seemed that someone was dying... However, when he came, he found that it was just Jian Mo''s intermittent headache. "Are you a little too nervous?" Li Yunze took the coffee handed over by Gu Beichen and drank, "however, you should be moderate... Do you treat your wife like this?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and didn''t speak. Li Yunze shook his head. "You married her because of the shares held by your second uncle. I think something''s wrong with you from that night... Third, are you interested in Jane Mo?" Gu Beichen slightly collected his eyes, "you think too much." "Anyway, I''m married. It''s not a matter for my body to toss like this." Li Yunze''s family has the most powerful chain hospital in the country. He is a doctor himself. He has received two medical doctors at a young age, focusing on neurosurgery and cardiothoracic and pulmonary department. When I just checked, although I didn''t go deep, I also knew that Jian morna was in a depressed mood and took an excessive bath... He and Gu Beichen are both men and brothers. Some things are self-evident. "Have you finished drinking? You can roll after drinking..." Gu Beichen said with a gloomy face. As soon as Li Yunze heard this, he couldn''t laugh or cry, but he didn''t say anything. After putting down the coffee cup, he sighed, "tut Tut, no one can do anything like you." Gu Beichen sent Li Yunze out. After returning to the bedroom, Jian Mo woke up... They looked at each other like this, one depressed and the other confused. Under the light, Jian Mo''s face was slightly white... Tight wrinkles showed her eyebrows, as if she was very uncomfortable. I don''t know whether it''s because the confrontation is tired or what. Jane Mo slowly retracts her sight and turns to one side... Her face is cold. Bit by bit drops quietly, but it''s like a small hammer falling on the nerve... Jane Mo''s head is still dizzy, but she''s not sleepy. Static, the whole space is full of suppressed breath under static hanging, just like the air is condensed. For nearly two years, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo have never been so quiet... When he comes back occasionally, she always greets each other with a smile, as if she can''t see any unhappiness in her. The women around Gu Beichen come and go. What do you want? However, he is a person who is obsessed with cleanliness in this area... He needs to seek release. With Jian Mo as his wife, he naturally doesn''t have to find other women. However, this woman is now emotionally involved with her nephew At that time, Xiao Jing was asked to check the past of Jian Mo and Zixiao... Hehe, their love in Luoda is very famous! Zixiao has always been excellent. Such a person is destined to be the favored son of heaven in school... But he only likes Jian mo. Even though they have spent the past few years, their stories are still beautiful on campus. When did you break up? Because Zixiao went abroad, there was no way to satisfy her vanity and money bath hope? The atmosphere in the bedroom became more and more depressed, and Jian Mo finally closed her eyes... In front of Gu Beichen, she had never been so capricious, but at this moment, she just felt tired and didn''t want to pay attention, and didn''t want to please. There was a sense of swelling and pain in her lower body. Jian Mo just let the pain in her body cover up her inner pain... Gu Beichen''s words had given Chu Zixiao a preventive shot at that time. Obviously, she didn''t have to tangle with the trouble caused by the public announcement of each other''s relationship. How good! He helped her make a decision Jane Mo has some ah q psychological thoughts, and the corners of her mouth rise... It''s nice that she can laugh after such humiliation and sarcasm! No matter how long the night is, it will pass... The only fair thing in the world is time. Whether you want to keep time happily or avoid time sadly, it is always moving at its unique speed. The weather had been a little gloomy the day before. On Sunday, because of the cloudy sky, the morning came much late... The air was filled with moisture, as if an autumn rain was coming. Early in the morning, Chu Zixiao called Gu Beichen, asked where he was, and came to lanze garden. Lanze garden is a villa area built by Gu Beichen before he took over the imperial group. The villa design drawings here are all in the hands of Gu Beichen... Many people have seen his Aura now, and few people remember that he was once a genius in the architecture department. Jane Mo''s face was still a little bad. As soon as she sat down at the table, the doorbell rang... Subconsciously, she looked at the man opposite at the newspaper and got up to open the door. The person who came back to knock on the door was usually either Xiao Jing or Susan. Jane Mo didn''t think much, but when the door opened, she sneered at Chu Zixiao''s deep eyes, and then opened the door calmly. Chu Zixiao didn''t come in, but just looked at Jian Mo quietly... Although it was confirmed from Jian Mo''s expression last night, his heart still hurt when he saw her here. Chu Zixiao didn''t expect that Gu Beichen would place Jian Mo in lanze garden. After all, this was once a gift he gave to someone "Won''t you come in?" Jane Mo opened her mouth lightly, and her voice was a little hoarse. Chu Zixiao came in mechanically In due time, Gu Beichen put down the newspaper and asked, "have you had breakfast? Together?" Chu Zixiao sat down at the table. Jian Mo went to the kitchen and took a pair of dishes and chopsticks and calmly put them in front of Chu Zixiao... He followed her voice with his eyes from beginning to end. Gu Beichen took coffee and drank it. After eagle eyes slipped over Jian Mo, he said softly, "officially, she''s your little aunt!" Chapter 46 In a word, it hurt two people! Chu Zixiao frowned and his breathing was not smooth Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at Chu Zixiao. The corners of her mouth pulled a fairly generous smile, "Hello!" As if at first sight, she said hello in a dignified manner. Chu Zixiao made a mockery at the corners of his mouth, but he didn''t know whether it was to himself or Jian mo... he didn''t answer, but looked at her quietly, as if he wanted to shoot her through. Jian Mo saw that Chu Zixiao didn''t respond and didn''t care too much. Then she began to eat... All her actions were not slow, just like the two men opposite. After eating, she took out a paper towel and wiped her mouth. She looked at Gu Beichen with a little annoyance and said, "ah Chen, my car is broken. I''m going to the beauty salon later. You can send me..." she shouted clearly and naturally, as if yesterday had never happened. "Yes." Gu Beichen responded faintly, without much emotion. However, Chu Zixiao''s face was a little bad, and a cold hiss was drawn from the corners of his mouth In two years, he worked hard like a fool to come back and ask her why? Mingming needs at least three years to get enough credits. It took him two and a half years to come back... But what did he get in the end! He came early in the morning to prove what he saw... Jian Mo in front of him was still the memory of her, but it was strange that frightened him. "I went upstairs to change my clothes." Jian Mo said that the man had turned and went upstairs, but at the moment of turning, the strength disguised on her face collapsed in an instant. How much Jane Mo behaves as if nothing had happened, how much pain she has in her heart The light sound of "bang" exploded in the silent space, temporarily blocking everything in Jane Morse and the restaurant. "Beichen," Chu Zixiao''s eyes looked at Gu Beichen with a trace of forbearance, "you just married her for shares, didn''t you?" "Yes." Gu Beichen calmly answered. "You''ve got the shares. When are you going to divorce her?" Chu Zixiao asked again, with a touch of complex emotion in his voice. "Divorce?" Gu Beichen gently tapped his fingers on the table. He looked at the closed door of the bedroom and said, "there''s no plan for the time being!" Chu Zixiao hung like a river in the court, but when facing Gu Beichen, he was obviously a layer shorter, "didn''t my uncle check her past when he married her?" His voice was gnashing his teeth, and the "little uncle" who rarely shouted was even more angry. "Really not..." Gu Beichen said honestly, "if I knew you had such a period, it would be impossible to deal with your second uncle with her." Chu Zixiao closed his eyes. "What if I want you to let go of her?" Gu Beichen tilted his head and looked at Chu Zixiao calmly. Different from the nephew''s rage, he was obviously calm, "let her go... And then?" He said lightly, "do you pursue her again? Will the eldest sister agree with you to be with her?" Chu Zixiao frowned slightly, "I naturally have a way to let my mother agree." Gu Beichen smiled, "Zixiao, you know... Impossible!" After a slight pause, his eyebrows and eyes gently picked a cold arc, "don''t say that the eldest sister won''t agree, even if she agrees... The woman I used by Gu Beichen, won''t let the people around me take over?" The light voice shows the momentum of arrogance, which is the domineering spirit of the king. "I didn''t say it last night at Su''s manor. It was for each other''s faces," Gu Beichen''s voice was indifferent from beginning to end. "You call me this morning and I''ll wait here to let you understand... Jane Mo, I want, that''s my Gu Beichen''s woman. I don''t want, and she can''t be your Chu Zixiao''s woman... Understand?" If someone else said this, Chu Zixiao would have directly waved his fist... However, he was unable to refute what the little uncle said. Gu Beichen''s means are clear to him, but it''s about Jian mo... He''s unwilling! "Beichen..." Gu Beichen stood up. "If you don''t listen to me or not..." after a slight pause, he looked down at the shining nephew in the legal world. "In fact, I don''t care about the result of your competition. It''s just her who was injured!" The words fell, he restrained his eyes, and Jane Mo had changed her clothes and went downstairs "Just close the door when you leave," Gu Beichen said. "There''s time for a blues appointment." Then he went out with Jane mo. Jane Mo silently went out of the villa door and didn''t see Chu Zixiao from beginning to end... Since the matter has been said, she has nothing to hide. If you have to say she''s sorry for him, you can only say... When she was desperate two years ago, she met someone who was his little uncle! Sitting on the Spyker, Jian Mo''s face was calm from beginning to end, as if nothing had happened "Where are you going?" Gu Beichen asked calmly. "Just put me down at the subway station." Jane Mo''s voice is a little hoarse. The so-called going to the beauty salon just now probably didn''t believe anyone except Chu Zixiao. "Squeak -" The harsh sound of brakes echoed on the road. Gu Beichen''s angular face was covered with haze, which was as gray as the weather outside. Jane Mo didn''t speak, just looked out of the window... Just a sneer at the corners of her mouth. "Jian Mo, I don''t care what relationship you had with Zixiao before. In the future... Don''t provoke him!" Gu Beichen''s voice was dark and overflowing, diffuse in the narrow space in the car, and the oppressive breath was short. Jane Mo pursed her lips and said nothing. Gu Beichen looked sideways. The ink pupil was deep, as if waiting for her answer. It''s like Jane doesn''t get the sight of the beast. She turned back and slowly said to Gu Beichen''s eyes: "no one wants to provoke him more than I do!" Then she loosened her seat belt and got off the bus no matter how far it was from the station. Gu Beichen looked at the stubborn figure through the windshield, and the cool thin corners of his lips closed slightly... The eagle''s eyes narrowed, and then started the car. With a "whoosh", the car quickly crossed the figure of Jian Mo and drove away with the arrogant sound of the engine Jian Mo stood in place, clenched her gums and looked at the dead Spyker. Only by taking a deep breath can she calm her anger. Chu Zixiao will appear in lanze garden this morning. Gu Beichen must have deliberately... But even so, she has no right to resist anything. Who makes her hang the title of Mrs. Gu, but she is actually the warm bed sunny person he "raises"! The pleasant mobile phone ring came at the right time, interrupting Jane Mo''s angry thoughts... She took out her mobile phone and showed that it was Dr. Wang. Her heart suddenly "cluttered" and hurried to answer the phone, "Dr. Wang, is it my mother..." her words were interrupted by Dr. Wang. Listening to the words from inside, Jane Mo''s pupils expanded instantly Chapter 47 "OK, I''ll go right away..." Jane Mo''s voice trembled with sudden joy. She hung up and wanted to stop the car, but suddenly found that she was still in the villa area, and there was no taxi here. Jian Mo secretly scolded Gu Beichen and could only raise her feet and walk forward... Because she was worried, her steps accelerated obviously. But also because it was too fast, the place that was abused last night was rubbed and painful. "Didi..." The sound of a horn came, and Jian Mo subconsciously looked away and saw a silver gray Ferrari parked beside her. When the window came down, there was a cold voice, "get in!" Jian Mo doesn''t want to get on the roller coaster of Chu Zi. Going up now is undoubtedly blocking each other. However, the hospital was in a hurry. She couldn''t delay her mother because she was having a hard time. Endure, Jane Mo opened the door and got into the car "Please take me to the nearest subway station!" After Jane Mo got on the bus, her voice showed indifference and alienation. Chu Zixiao started the car, "didn''t your husband take you to the beauty salon? How can you walk alone on the road?" There was a cold hiss in his voice. Jane Mo closed her eyes. No matter the car had started, she wanted to pull out her seat belt and get off The screeching sound of braking came, and the wrist was suddenly grabbed, "Jane Mo, are you crazy?!" "I''m crazy..." Jane Mo turned her head and suddenly burst out, "I''m crazy to get on your car and continue to let you tease me!" Chu Zixiao has forbearance at the bottom of his eyes. He used a woman he once and now loved. The person she married was his little uncle, which was more painful than when he knew she was going to break up with him. Who is Gu Beichen? He plays in the world. Women are just for him to vent... But this woman married him! "I''ll take you to the subway station." Chu Zixiao gritted his teeth and released Jian mo. seeing that she had no intention of getting off, he started the car Maybe it''s because both of them have something on their minds, and no one pays attention to the oncoming Spyker... When the two cars pass by, Gu Beichen''s vision penetrates the windshield and falls on Jian mo. After sending Jian Mo to the subway station, Chu Zixiao endured and said, "Mo Mo, let''s talk about it sometime..." "There''s nothing to talk about." Jane Mo said coldly, "we''ve finished talking about what we should talk about." "Mo Mo..." Chu Zixiao was helpless, and his eyes were sad under the injury. "I was wrong before, and I shouldn''t have done that to you." Gritting his teeth, "but you shouldn''t give me the wrong guidance information, should you?" Jane Mo took a breath, "I''m sorry, I have something urgent..." she said. She got off the bus and hurried into the subway passage. The subway can go directly to Yashu hospital where Sumer is located. When Jane Mo arrived at the hospital, she hurried to Dr. Wang''s office "Dr. Wang, is there really a suitable heart donation?" Jane Mo''s heart was a little worried because she asked this question. Although she had just heard it on the phone, she asked in person. Dr. Wang handed Jian Mo a folder. "The other party didn''t last long because of uremia..." he said solemnly, "the other party agreed to donate his heart after death. I also checked that the coincidence between the other party''s heart and your mother is more than 70%... It''s rare." Jane Mo listened and looked at the information with urgency and excitement in her eyes... But when she turned to the back, she was stunned. Dr. Wang sighed, "there are old people and children in the donor''s family... So she asked for a paid fee of 1.5 million. In addition to the transplantation and your mother''s early operation arrangement process, the cost will be a lot. I''m afraid there will be 2 million in front and back!" Such expenses are not affordable to ordinary people at all... Besides, Jian Mo''s usual money is used for the normal expenses of Su Mo''s medical hospitalization instruments. Jian Mo held the folder tightly and looked at the donor''s request. She clenched her teeth and said, "Dr. Wang, please thank my family for me... I''ll sign this document!" "Little Jane..." Dr. Wang looked at Jian Mo solemnly. "You have to think clearly... This is a lot of money. The most important thing is... Every operation is dangerous. Moreover, although the coincidence degree of the heart is 70%, it is not certain whether there will be rejection in the later stage!" "I understand..." Jane Mo astringently raised her eyes at the corner of her mouth, "Dr. Wang, but what can I do?" She tugged at the corners of her mouth. "I can''t help it when I don''t have a suitable heart, but now... Can I watch my mother continue to lie like this? Moreover, I never think people should get anything for free... If others are willing to donate, they should pay for it." Dr. Wang looked at the 23-year-old girl in front of him and sighed, "I will try my best to reduce the cost in the hospital..." "Thank you, Dr. Wang!" After pulling the corners of her mouth gratefully, Jane Mo took the pen and signed the sales consent on the document. After leaving the doctor''s office, Jane Mo went to Sumer''s ward... The nurse was right there. She asked about the recent situation and listened to everything. She thanked her gratefully. The familiar nurses in the hospital like Jian Mo very much. In everyone''s eyes, she is strong and kind... Unfortunately, in this world, it seems that she is always harsh to treat kind people. "Mom, after you have a heart transplant, let''s buy a small apartment to live together, OK?" Jane Mo holds Sumer''s hand. "You don''t know. I haven''t been tired of talking about things around me in your arms for a long time... I haven''t eaten the food you cooked for a long time." Jian Mo said, his nose slightly sour... Because of yesterday''s incident, all grievances poured up. She held back her tears and said, "Mom, you will get better. Now there are only two of us... You won''t have the heart to leave me, will you?" Jane Mo took Sumer''s hand and put it on her cheek. She tried to smile to keep her tears from falling... However, her heart was sad and painful, and the tears fell out of control. That night two years ago, it''s still the pain in her heart... What''s her mood when she was drugged by her brother and sent to a man''s bed? That night, it was nothing to lose a woman''s precious things and her commitment to Chu Zixiao... But my father left and my mother is unconscious now. She didn''t even know who possessed the world for the first time. Do you mind? But how can Marrying Gu Beichen is not only for money, but also to force herself to have no way back... But now that Chu Zixiao is back, she knows that she has not only driven herself crazy, but also driven him crazy! Standing on the steps of the hospital, Jane Mo slowly looked up at the sky... It was gray, just like her life, unable to see the light. Xiao Jing, holding a medical bill in his hand, looked at Jane Mo''s back from a distance and frowned slightly. He couldn''t help whispering, "how can miss jane be in the hospital?" Chapter 48 Because Gu Beichen temporarily decided to come back in advance, many things abroad didn''t have time to deal with. So on the weekend when he came back, Xiao Jing worked overtime all night to match the foreign time and caught a cold... Passing by the hospital, he came in and prescribed some medicine. Seeing Jian Mo, although he was confused, he didn''t think much, so he drove to the headquarters of emperor group. Emperor group is located in the most prosperous central section of Los Angeles commercial street. The 79 storey building looks like a monster overlooking everything around. Many people work overtime on weekends. After Gu Beichen came, he has held two video conferences... He has issued several instructions, often hundreds of millions of investment cases. "Would you like to have a rest first?" Susan came out of Gu Beichen''s office with the document in her arms. Seeing Xiao Jing''s decadent appearance, she asked. Xiao Jing shook his head with a bitter look on his face. "Forget it, Chen, it''s stormy today... I don''t want to die!" Susan shrugged and looked back strangely. "Why did Chen Shao suddenly come back?" "If I tell you it''s because of Jane Mo, do you believe it?" Xiao Jing''s voice has begun to be weak and hoarse. It''s obvious that they don''t have much help from Beichen. It''s obvious that they don''t have much help from Beichen. However, in order to leave her job and return home... Susan doesn''t think it''s possible anyway. "In fact, I''d like to believe it''s not true..." Xiao Jing sneezed and was a little confused in his mind. He was so busy last night that he had to take time to inquire about the past of Jian Mo and Chu Zixiao after receiving a call from Chen Shao. What he did with this special help is becoming more and more difficult, alas! "Did Xiao Jing come back?" Timely, Gu Beichen''s indifferent voice came from the internal telephone. Susan looked at Xiao Jing with some sympathy and immediately replied, "Chen Shao, I''m back." "Let him in!" "Good!" Susan broke the inside line. "Go... Take good care of your master!" "Alas, you said that if I follow Chen Shao, will I enter aging ahead of time?" Xiao Jing asked, but his steps had gone to Gu Beichen''s office. "Inform the real estate department that I will see the design drawing of ''Yuehua city'' before work tomorrow at the latest..." Gu Beichen said coldly without raising his head at the moment Xiao Jing came in. "In addition, ask Li bureau to have dinner tonight." Xiao Jing answered. He was about to leave, but he decided whether to tell Gu Beichen about Jian Mo who looked wrong in the hospital... Now Chen Shao''s mind is uncertain. Don''t step on the mine later. Gu Beichen looked up at this time. Eagle eyes looked at Xiao Jing and asked, "what else?" "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing thought and said, "when I just passed by the hospital... I saw Miss Jane in the hospital, as if she looked a little bad." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, but with a faint "um" sound, he continued to hang his eyes and sign the document Xiao Jing left the office without saying anything, but at the moment of closing the door, he saw Gu Beichen take his mobile phone and dial the number out "Where is it?" Gu Beichen asked coldly when he was on the phone. Jian Mo sat at the window of a fast-food restaurant and was like throwing Gu Beichen the words "I''m having dinner with another man". Unfortunately... She didn''t have the courage to really provoke the man. "Prepare for dinner." Jane Mo said faintly, "in the fast food restaurant." Gu Beichen was silent. After a long time, he said, "well, I''m in the company, you can deliver rice..." he wanted to ask her why she went to the hospital, but he asked her to deliver rice. Gu Beichen felt that his IQ at the moment had never been more urgent. "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and said emphatically, "I''m at a big stall!" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows. "Can''t I have a big stall? I want to see lunch in half an hour!" He didn''t give Jane Mo a chance to talk. He hung up the phone. Jane Mo holds the phone and hates her teeth. She doesn''t know what kind of madness Gu Beichen is having at the moment... In order to avoid suspicion, he never takes her to public, and she naturally doesn''t want to cause trouble with him publicly. But at the moment, it doesn''t matter if she is asked to deliver rice... Who can tell her what the hell Gu Beichen''s behavior is?! No matter what it is, Jian Mo still packed several dishes Gu Beichen likes to eat on weekdays and took a taxi to Emperor Group... This weekend, she thought there was no one. Unfortunately, when she arrived, she felt how naive she was. Large groups, even on weekends, are obviously in high-intensity work... No wonder Emperor Group has always been a myth of Los Angeles. "Hello, do you have an appointment?" The receptionist smiled and asked appropriately. "Delivery," Jane Mo didn''t lie. She wanted to say it was for Gu Beichen, but she still said, "Xiao tezhu ordered it!" The front desk was obviously surprised... She looked up and down at Jianmo, and saw that her clothes were luxury brands, so she couldn''t help sneering. Have the celebrities done anything to get close to Chen Shao now? deliver the take-out? Thanks to her imagination... It was ordered with the help of Xiao Te, hum! "Did Xiao Te help order it?" The front desk has a mockery at the bottom of his eyes, but the smile at the corners of his mouth is still perfect, "then put it here and I''ll send it up later." Jane Mo didn''t ignore the ridicule of the front desk, but she thought it was very abrupt to deliver the meal like this, "OK." At the same time, she put the lunch box aside and said, "twenty yuan, thank you!" Poof The front desk is a little choked by his saliva. Who is Xiao Jing? That''s the people around Gu Beichen. Their annual salary is even higher than that of the directors of many departments... Eat fast food of $20? Even the meals in the imperial staff restaurant are more than this price. Want to return to think, but the front desk or politely paid 20 yuan to Jane mo. Jane Mo turned around after taking it generously, and then sent a text message to Gu Beichen: Chen Shao''s fast food was put at the front desk. Have a nice meal! Gu Beichen''s face turned black when he received the text message. He threw down his signature pen and got up and went downstairs The front desk was going to deal with the 20 yuan fast food, but before she had time, she saw Gu Beichen coming to this side alone. She was so frightened that she quickly bowed down and said hello, "president!" "Where''s the fast food guy?" Gu Beichen glanced at the fast food box and asked coldly. The front desk was slightly stunned at first, and then subconsciously said, "let''s go..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes slid across the front desk, coldly put down a sentence "not for work tomorrow", turned and chased out. The front desk immediately turned red. Xiao Jingzheng didn''t know what had happened. After looking at the back of Gu Beichen, he asked, "what''s going on?" The front desk said about the fast food just delivered, and pitifully handed the fast food to Xiao Jing, "Xiao tezhu said it was for you." Xiao Jing inquired about the appearance of the fast-food delivery man. When he heard this, he said, well... The president''s wife personally delivered fast-food and was rejected at the door of her own company. No wonder Chen Shao''s face is darker than the bottom of the pot. Chapter 49 Jian Mo didn''t leave. She sat by the big flower bed at the gate of the Emperor Group... When Gu Beichen came out, she was in a trance. Although she was waiting, she thought that the most she could do was to let Xiao Jing or Susan come down to pick her up. It was absolutely impossible for him to come down in person. Gu Beichen was a little embarrassed when he saw the smile on the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth, but he was used to it with a cold face, but he didn''t show it, "Chen Shao?" He said quietly, "have a nice meal? Do you really think you''re delivering fast food?" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and smiled, "there''s no way... I can''t tell the front desk that I''m your boss''s wife?" She said briskly, "I think the front desk will think I have paranoia and late cancer, and directly call the security guard to drive me out... Isn''t that more humiliating?!" Gu Beichen looked down at the little woman still sitting on the flower bed. Without the sadness of last night and the cold war of this morning, it seemed as if it was the same as before. "Come in with me!" Gu Beichen said coldly, turned and walked inside. Jane Mo got up and didn''t know if it was because she got up too hard. She felt dizzy when she got up... She clenched her teeth and didn''t think much. She closed her eyes and eased it. Then she opened it... Just opposite Gu Beichen, because she couldn''t wait for her deep eyes to turn back with the past. "Let''s go!" Jane Mo walked forward with a heartless smile. Gu Beichen waited in place and felt that Jian Mo''s steps were somewhat vain. He thought of holding her roughly on the door last night and slipped through with some guilt Gu Beichen gestured to Jian Mo when he touched his hand. Jane Mo didn''t know what Gu Beichen wanted, but she came here to ask him for something, and let him take his hand and enter the imperial group. Here, if someone dares to spread Gu Beichen''s scandal, he must feel that life is too comfortable... The rhythm of looking for death. Therefore, Jane Mo is not worried. The front desk is crying and hoping Xiao Jing pleads for her. When Gu Beichen comes in with Jian Mo''s hand, his eyes are straight When did the president treat a woman like this? Even those women who spread the scandal are limited to the outside world. I have never seen a woman who can be treated like this by the president in the emperor! Jane Mo glanced at the stage in front of her, pitiful to her, but stunned, as if she didn''t care when she saw something scary. She just said casually, "a very dutiful little girl... Should get a raise." Gu Beichen glanced at her with a faint "um" sound, and the person had arrived at the elevator. Xiao Jing is a person who knows current affairs. He pressed the elevator early and waited... When they went in, they didn''t follow in, but handed Jian mo the fast food in his hand. "Chen Shao, the front desk..." Xiao Jing heard Jian Mo''s words just now, but he had to ask what Chen Shao meant by "um". "Stay and get a raise!" When Gu Beichen''s words fell, the elevator door just closed Xiao Jing smiled, then turned his head and looked at his front desk with a wronged face. He sighed and said, "go to work at ease and wait for a raise..." when he was stunned and frozen in place at the front desk, he pressed another elevator. One front and one back, the front desk is like riding a roller coaster... You can imagine the excitement. After Xiao Jing went upstairs, he quickly shared a scene in the company lobby with Susan. "You mean..." Susan hesitated slightly. "Chen Shao changed his mind for Mrs. Shao?!" Xiao nodded: "when did Chen Shao''s decision change? At such a fast speed?" Because of a cold, there was a touch of light on some decadent face, "Chen Shao, is it true?" Susan pondered and shook her head. "I can''t understand... You said, if Chen Shao is really serious about Miss Jane, why do you ask Li Ju?" Xiao Jing was stunned and thought about it... Li bureau is in charge of culture. When she was abroad, Lu man called, as if she was stuck in a play culture. Chen Shao is very interested in Lu man recently. What she wants to do, Chen Shao tries his best to satisfy her... It seems that she is really spoiled. "You say, is there Jane Mo in Chen Shao''s heart? He doesn''t know?" Xiao Jing asked suspiciously. Susan is a strong woman. Gu Beichen has been with him before taking over the Emperor... Seriously, love is a bit extravagant for her. So that Xiao Jing could not answer what she said at the moment. "Don''t guess Chen Shao''s mind. You can''t guess..." Susan sang a minor with a smile and then said, "go downstairs for dinner." The right and left hands outside arranged and analyzed themselves. Gu Beichen didn''t know. He just watched Jian Mo open the lunch box and push it in front of him, and took chopsticks for him The taste is average, and the food is even worse from the beginning of its appearance. "Where have you been this morning?" Gu Beichen asked pretending nothing had happened. At that time, he felt a little uncomfortable when he saw her get on the chuzi roller coaster. "Go to the hospital." Jane Mo answered calmly and took a glass to drink water. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "what are you doing in the hospital?" Jian morwei frowned invisibly, raised his eyes and looked at the elegant man who could eat a fast food of 20 yuan. His mind turned around. In the end, he didn''t say anything about his mother, but opened his mouth faintly, "post work handling and emergency!" Gu Beichen paused and analyzed Jian Mo''s words, then said coldly, "Jian Mo, you really put your identity right!" Jane Mo smiled. "Of course... I won''t give you any trouble, but the first condition for you to marry me." Gu Beichen felt a little uncomfortable. He didn''t think deeply about why he was so uncomfortable. He just looked down coldly... He felt a little cheap. He didn''t know how strong Jian Mo''s repair ability was, but he was worried when Xiao Jing said she was in the hospital. After dinner, Jane Mo cleaned up the fast-food box, and then added that she would leave directly and talk about money in the evening, or now She''s afraid that if she doesn''t say it now, she won''t have the courage to say it''s one. On the other hand, the man is uncertain and doesn''t go home for a long time... The contract of the hospital has been signed. Without money in place, her mother may miss this opportunity. It''s not easy to wait for the right heart "What''s up?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at Jian Mo sharply. Just at one glance, he saw through her thoughts. Jane Mo came forward, stabbed Gu Beichen around his neck and sat down on his leg, "ah Chen, it''s really something..." she said, and she kissed him on his face. "If you do nothing, you will steal if you are not a traitor!" Gu Beichen said coldly. Last night, my son called him "Gu Beichen" as if he were crazy. This morning, he got out of the car with a bad temper... Now he flattered him as if nothing had happened. It seems that he had a purpose to deliver the meal. But he gave her a way! "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo shouted angrily and kissed Gu Beichen at the corner of his mouth, "how can you say that about your wife?!" Jian Mo''s ass rubbed against Gu Beichen''s leg, and he reacted immediately. The relationship between the two people was mostly about love. He didn''t hide his bath hope, but asked in a low voice, "say, what''s the matter?" Jane Mo pursed her lips, and didn''t dare to look directly at Gu Beichen. "Last time you said you needed money, I told you..." "Yes!" "Well..." Jane Mo bit her lower lip and said as if she had made much determination, "... Can you give me two million? It''s a loan!" At the end, she hurriedly added another sentence and kissed Beichen to please. Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep, "please me, just for money?" Chapter 50 Jane Mo smiled enchanting, and the charming apricot eyes reflected the bright light, as if some felt funny and took it for granted, "I married you for money!" Gu Beichen smiled, and his thin lips raised an incomprehensible emotion, "well, indeed." "Then... Will you give it or not?" Jane asked again. Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows. "Can you tell me what to do with two million?" "Go and raise a obedient little white face..." Jane Mo answered very smoothly. "Oh?" Gu Beichen picked up his eyebrows and tails, "is there a little white face better than me?" His lips have been deceived by Jane Mo''s lip line, "more handsome than me? Better than me? Or... Better than me in that respect?" "Well, I haven''t tried yet. I''m going to try with the money!" Jian Mo''s heart has begun to tremble. In order to create the image of her love for money, she is also quite hard. Gu Beichen flashed a dangerous light in the depths of his eagle eyes, and saw that he turned his body slightly and had pressed Jian Mo on the wide sofa... He narrowed his eyes slightly, and his black pupil like Obsidian emitted a dangerous light. The thin lip gently slipped over Jian Mo''s skin, and the warm breath spread on it, stirring her heartstrings. At the same time, his teeth gently bit her earrings, and the low and magnetic voice overflowed the thin lip: "it seems... I want you to have an impression of my ability first, so you can have a better comparison." Jane Mo smiled more and more moving, and put her arms on Gu Beichen''s neck, "that can''t disappoint me..." Gu Beichen really didn''t disappoint Jian mo. in the office on the 79th floor, where he made a decision and didn''t know how many people and the company died, he asked her again Unlike last night''s violence, gentleness and hegemony coexist. "Satisfied?" Gu Beichen''s breath was slightly fluffy, but he asked in her ear calmly. "I don''t know how good you are?" Jane Mo said with an uneven breath. Gu Beichen seemed to be delighted by this sentence. Looking at each other''s messy clothes, he got up and went to the built-in dressing room to change clothes, and asked Susan to buy Jane Mo''s clothes and let her change Jane Mo is not embarrassed. No one knows more about Xiao Jing and Susan and the way she gets along with Gu Beichen. While waiting for clothes, Jian Mo went to the bathroom of the lounge to take a shower. Wearing Gu Beichen''s bathrobe, she came out and just saw Gu Beichen take out the check... With a big brush, "brush" a few times, and then tore the signed check to Jian mo. Jane Mo has to admit that Gu Beichen is a generous person... Although two million is not even a fart to him. After receiving the check, Jian Mo didn''t look at the numbers on it. She just kissed Gu Beichen and said, "it''s nice of my husband..." "Is it better to sign a check... Or just on you?" Gu Beichen''s hot eyes surged up again. Bird! Jane Mo scolded in her heart, but the smile on her face was more and more brilliant, "it''s good everywhere!" After a pause, he said more pleasantly, "well, it''s the best there!" With that, the enchanted drooping eyes looked at a key position. "You hook me like this... Do you want to do it again?" Gu Beichen gently picked up Jian Mo''s chin with his thick fingers. His thin lips rolled around her lips for a while, and his eyes were deep. Jian Mo feels that there is no free lunch in the world... Since Gu Beichen gave it so simply, she naturally wants to make him comfortable! Finally, there is another beautiful scene full of rooms. Hand in the money and hand in the body... Jane Mo feels like those women who come out to sell at the moment! However, the man she sold herself to is morally and ethically shameless. Because this man is legally crowned with the title of "husband". Isn''t it sad? How?! When Jane Mo finally collapsed under the man''s powerful attack, she fell on his shoulder. She smiled at the corners of her mouth... But it was more ugly than crying. Even the fundus of the eyes was covered with a thin layer of water mist. The more she swayed herself, the closer she felt she fell into the abyss... It was hard to try to die slowly, but she seemed to be ecstatic about it! It was already two o''clock in the afternoon when Jian Mo left the Emperor Group... When she came, her steps were a little vain. When she left, it was obvious that her steps were more difficult because of Gu Beichen''s uncontrollable. After going downstairs, the eyes of the front desk were slightly red because they had cried. When they saw her, they first nodded apologetically, and then smiled with gratitude in their eyes. Jane Mo just smiled politely, and then walked away with an uncomfortable step The front desk was curious. Jane Mo changed her clothes, but when you think about it, you seem to understand something again. Jane Mo is not in the mood to pay attention to what is behind her eyes. She left the imperial group building and just took a taxi to the hospital "Check it out," Gu Beichen stood in front of the French window, looked at the voice and said indifferently after getting into the taxi, "what did she do in the hospital today." Jane mo''ai wants so much money, but she never wants so much money with him for no reason Xiao Jing answered and went to do it. There was no doubt about his ability. When Jian Mo arrived at the hospital, he had a general understanding of the situation "Chen Shao, it was Miss Jane''s mother who found the right heart source. The other party offered a paid fee of 1.5 million. Plus the expenses before and after the operation, it would cost about 2 million!" Xiao Jing observed Gu Beichen''s face as he spoke. I can''t tell. There''s no expression on Chen Shao''s carved face, but he still feels... Chen Shao is angry. When Jane Mo became the object of marriage in the primary election, she said she loved vanity and needed money. What Gu Beichen saw from the bottom of her eyes was really a bath hope for money. Later, Jane Mo always had a good grasp of her identity... Gu Beichen never checked her past. But just because he didn''t check, he didn''t know about her relationship with Chu Zixiao, and he didn''t know about Jane Mo''s mother''s heart disease in hospital for two years. "Tell the hospital..." Gu Beichen just said and stopped again. After a few seconds, he said, "forget it, let her do it." Xiao Jing was surprised. He thought Chen Shao would directly say "tell the hospital that I will bear all the expenses of Su Mo"! Sure enough, he thought too much "Go out..." Gu Beichen seemed to be a little agitated. Xiao Jing answered and said before leaving, "Chen Shao, Li Bureau has made an appointment at Feitian hotel at 6 pm." Chapter 51 "Chen Shao appeared in person, and the emperor escorted him. Everything is easy to say and easy to say..." Li Ju was a little drunk, his face was fat and trembled with his words, and the big fat hand pretended to slip past the woman''s hand from time to time. According to the introduction just now... The woman around him is his daughter! Well, godfather is very popular nowadays... Although Gu Beichen is not contaminated with the "secular world", he is also very clear about the doorway here. "Li Ju said so, then I''d like to thank Manman..." Gu Beichen''s slender fingers gently twisted the red wine glass. There was not much emotion on his cold, carved face. Eagle eyes didn''t see the dry daughter from beginning to end. Naturally, he didn''t see the "autumn eyes" sent by the dry daughter from time to time. Gu Beichen personally made an appointment for dinner, but Li Ju naturally didn''t give face... After looking at Lu man, who was always tired of Gu Beichen''s side, she was really greedy for her Miaoman''s body, but considering that this woman is Gu Beichen''s woman now, she can only bear it. Although Gu Beichen''s influence in Los Angeles is in the city, birds of a feather flock together. Several people around him are not good stubbles. If you really want to annoy this man, his career may come to an end. The dinner conversation was very happy. Finally, Gu Beichen not only sent the room card of the long-term presidential suite of Zhang Feitian hotel to Li Ju, but also left a sentence "I''ll write down the favor of Li Ju, Gu Beichen". In Los Angeles, who doesn''t know how difficult it is to let Gu Beichen lead a personal relationship On such a thought, Li bureau can''t help but look at Lu man with new eyes. This woman can''t be righted, can she? There are also some means Lu man was naturally happy. Originally, she had no intersection with Gu Beichen. Who knows, after an accident, Gu Beichen fell in love with her. There was no intimacy between them. However, Gu Beichen would finish it for her as long as she didn''t ask too much... Once, she was a little confused. Today, Gu Beichen even accepted the favor because of Li Ju''s letting go. More or less, she couldn''t help thinking about it "Beichen, you are so kind to me, it''s easy for me to fall..." Lu man said with some melancholy, hooking Gu Beichen''s arm. She is a smart woman. Although she desperately wants to hook this man, she knows very well that haste makes waste. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but let the landing vine go out in a circle Suddenly, Gu Beichen''s steps stopped, and then his eyes shifted to the other side... Jian Mo and Su Junli came out from there. I don''t know what Su Junli said, and Jian Mo smiled. Such a smile made Gu Beichen feel dazzling... To him, she had never smiled from her heart, just like shy. Jane Mo didn''t expect to meet Gu Beichen here. In the afternoon, she received a phone call from Su Junli and invited her to dinner. The sentence "friends shouldn''t have a sense of distance" made her unable to push past, so she came over. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes coldly slipped past Su Junli, and his thin lips gently hissed, "is he the so-called little white face?" Without a reason, he snorted coldly, turned his vocal cords, landed and walked away. Jian Mo''s face was a little ugly. Su Jun Li frowned slightly, looked at Gu Beichen''s back and said slowly, "I didn''t expect that Chen Shao was also a naive person." Gu Beichen stopped slowly and didn''t look back immediately. He just raised a faint smile on his cold lips... That smile was cold and stiff in the corners of his mouth, not to the bottom of his eyes. Slowly turned around, Gu Beichen''s fierce eyes collided with Su Jun''s indifferent eyes in the air, and the flames splashed everywhere... Even the two women around each other felt the tension of swords. Lu man looked at Jian Mo curiously and knew her a little, but he couldn''t remember where he had met... Just that this woman could be with Su sanshao. It''s not a simple person. Just, what does Gu Beichen mean? Did he know this woman, too? Thinking of this, Lu man couldn''t help looking at Jian Mo deeply "One less word of advice," Gu Beichen''s voice was gentle without any tone, but showed a murderous indifference. "Some people are poisonous. It''s better not to touch them... Otherwise, I''m afraid you can''t afford to cause trouble." Su Junli was born in a famous family. How could he be frightened by Gu Beichen''s words? "Thank you for reminding Chen Shao, but I also have a word to advise Chen Shao..." Su Junli smiled. He was gentle and handsome. With such a smile, people suddenly felt like bathing in the morning wind. It was clear and comfortable, but it was a little cool. "Where do you often stand by the river? There are some things you can''t see clearly... It''s too late to regret at last." "Really?" Gu Beichen chuckled, "then I''d like to thank sanshao for reminding me." "You''re welcome!" Su Jun left calmly and looked at Jian Mo, "I''ll take you back." Jian Mo nodded and looked at Gu Beichen... To be exact, Lu man took a look around Gu Beichen''s arm, then ignored Gu Beichen''s warning if he inadvertently projected it, and left with Su Jun. "The one around Su San Shao is very beautiful..." Lu man smiled and said, "Beichen, what do you think?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were indifferent. In fact, they were already deep and bottomless. Looking at the figure leaving, he raised his thin lips and said slowly, "they are not as beautiful as you!" Lu man smiled. No matter how sincere Gu Beichen''s words were, the man was willing to please her. Was he really different from her? Because Xiao Jing caught a cold today, it was Susan who temporarily became a driver who sent Gu Beichen here Susan didn''t realize it before. When she drove Lu man back to Gu Beichen today, she made a small discovery. As if... Chen Shao drove a woman herself. She had never seen her before. Of course, except for the family, it seems that Jane Mo is the only one! This person seems to have a cleanliness mania for emotion, but the gossip outside is always uninterrupted... The most important thing is that he seems to be especially interested in Lu man. While waiting for the red light, subconsciously, Susan looked back in the rearview mirror. It doesn''t look good. At first glance, Lu man is holding Gu Beichen''s arm, his cheek is leaning on his shoulder, his eyes are slightly drooping, and his straight hair falls gently Such a scene, coupled with the not very bright interior environment... For a time, Susan was stunned. Like, so like "Didi -" There was a hurried whistle from the back of the car. Susan hurried back to her senses and started the car in the direction of Luman apartment... But she was a little shaken in her heart. If she wasn''t too familiar with Gu Beichen, she almost thought Lu man was her! I see Susan sighed quietly, and suddenly thought of the way Jane Mo left Gu Beichen''s office in the afternoon. She suddenly felt sad for the little woman. Chen Shao never had a heart. His heart died five years ago! Chapter 52 Su Junli sent Jian Mo to lanze park. The car stopped on the roadside. He looked around the quiet surroundings and looked at Jian Mo, "will it trouble you?" "OK..." Jane Mo shrugged. "I''ll go back first." Su Junli nodded. Just as Jian Mo untied his seat belt and turned to open the door, he opened his mouth eagerly: "Jian Mo, are you happy now?" Jian Mo''s hand, which was already on the doorknob, stiffened. Then he pulled the corners of his mouth and looked back at Su Junli. "What is happiness? What is unhappiness? Everyone''s life can''t be happy or sad all the time... Isn''t it?" Su Jun Li frowned slightly and looked at Jian mo. she just pricked up the thorn on her body in an instant. On the one hand, she protected herself and was ready to stab the people who wanted to approach her at any time... No matter whether the other party was good or bad. "Everyone has the right to choose the greatest happiness..." Su Junli''s voice was soft and unreasonable. "If you want, you can also." You have the right to pursue more beauty Jane Mo knows what Su Junli means, but she doesn''t have the right in his mouth! "Gu Beichen and I were together, and each got what he needed..." Jane Mo simply sat back and said, "he needed a wife at that time, and I needed money, that''s all." Su Jun Li frowned slightly. Obviously, he didn''t expect Jane Mo to say so directly. Jane Mo smiled, "yes, I''m a vain woman... In fact, Gu Beichen and I are very good. I live in a villa, wear famous brands and have money to spend... You see, maybe Mrs. Gu is an empty, lonely and cold woman. But you can see that my life is actually pretty good." "But you''re not happy!" Jian Mo was annoyed at Su Junli''s biting "unhappy" and said, "happy? How can I be happy? I need to live outside the fifth ring road every day in order to live and save some rent? I have to go out two hours in advance every day in order to go to work? I have to be tired when I get home at night? Is this kind of life happy?" "I only know that when people''s consciousness is not strongly supported, it is called happiness!" Su Jun''s eyes were as deep as Jian Mo at a glance. "You''re not the one who compromises life because of money. Don''t you hurt to say that about yourself?" Jian Mo was always analyzed by Su Jun, and she was very angry, "you''re not me, please don''t attach your thoughts to me!" With that, she got out of the car angrily and slammed the door. Su Junli also got out of the car and grabbed Jian Mo''s wrist. "Mo Mo, it''s my fault..." his words softened, "I shouldn''t force you to face these..." Jian Mo took a deep breath, then slowly turned and looked at Su Junli, "Junli, you are a minor in psychology. I know, but... Can you not see through my mind so easily in the future?" Su Junli saw Jian Mo''s unbearable sadness at the bottom of her eyes and felt sad, "I''m sorry!" "Forget it," said Jane Mo with a self deprecating smile, "you''re just for my good." After a slight meal, she sighed deeply and felt helpless. "There were some reasons for marrying Gu Beichen at the beginning, but now that I''m married, I don''t want to divorce... Although it''s extravagant hope, it has nothing to do with money." Su Jun left as if she had been scratched by a sharp blade. She should have been the most beautiful age of a woman, but she disguised her helplessness with strength. What kind of reason can make her put down her pride? Once so young, she has great ambitions... What makes her learn to compromise? Su Jun felt hurt, but instinctively pulled Jian Mo into his arms and held him... At that moment, he didn''t know what to say, so he could only hold him like this, as if only in this way could they be less sad. There are dazzling lights sliding Because of the light, Su Junli didn''t see the people sitting in the car. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes slanted slightly, from far to near, and then drove away slowly... The ink pupil became deeper and deeper, and the air in the narrow car was gradually frozen by a cold thing. Susan looked at the two people still holding from the reversing mirror, and then looked at Gu Beichen from the rearview mirror... She saw that her cold, carved face was covered with haze and sneered. "Chen Shao," Susan said as the car turned into the gate of lanze Park, "in fact... It may be a misunderstanding." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but took back his sight and looked forward indifferently. Susan parked the car in the parking space of the villa and wondered whether the young master wanted to get off. Gu Beichen''s voice suddenly overflowed her thin lips, "go back to the middle of the mountain." Susan pursed her lips and wanted to say something. She didn''t say anything at last. She just answered... She started the car and left lanzeyuan. At that time, Susan was thinking that if two people outside were still holding her, she could guarantee that chenshao would call to stop, and then get off and tear Jian Mo away... It''s hard to say whether she would directly come to Su Jun for a French kiss. She was a little excited when she thought like this... Unfortunately, when she went out, she didn''t see the two people holding her, and even Su Jun''s car disappeared. "Stop!" Gu Beichen''s voice passed coldly to Ali. Susan put on the brake and stopped quickly. "Chen Shao?" Gu Beichen said coldly, "just came out all the way. Did you see her?" The "she" is self-evident. "It seems..." Susan hesitated. "No. however, there may be a dead corner in the light." This statement is not unreasonable. Lanzeyuan is a villa group, and the green belt is well done... After all, there are many forks on the carriageway and people''s roads. Gu Beichen didn''t say anything and got out of the car directly "Chen Shao, are you still going to the mid levels?" Susan knew it, but she asked deliberately. "You go back." Gu Beichen got out of the car and walked back. Susan looked at the man''s cold and arrogant back, only Xiao Jing''s speculation in her mind, and couldn''t help whispering, "Chen Shao... Won''t you really be interested in Jane Mo?" If it''s true, what does Lu man mean? If it''s not true, what do you mean by being gloomy and trying to kill? A man''s arrogance?! Susan frowned, but she didn''t think much about it... She just drove away. Gu Beichen passed through the green belt path and returned to the villa... He didn''t meet Jian Mo all the way. After returning, the villa was also dark. Gu Beichen''s carved face was shrouded in haze... He stood in front of the French window and looked at the drizzle outside. His face became more and more ugly. When Jane Mo came back, it was the morning of the next day. Because she didn''t bring an umbrella, she was wet when she came back... When she entered the villa, she quickly took off her shoes and planned to take a hot bath upstairs, change her clothes and go to the company. "Why, didn''t little white face even send an umbrella?" Suddenly, the voice of Yin measurement came coldly. Jian Mo''s footsteps subconsciously met the sharp eyes he was sitting on the sofa. At a glance, Jane Mo seemed to be delayed... Her face turned white! Chapter 53 Jane Mo didn''t expect Gu Beichen to be there. After all, the sultry and luxurious Spyker outside was not there. Gu Beichen got up and walked slowly towards Jian Mo with steady steps. Step by step, each step fell on Jian Mo''s heart like a drum. Jian Mo subconsciously retreated and didn''t know what she was retreating... It was just that she felt a little hairy when she saw the two sharp lights from the man''s eagle eyes. Gu Beichen stopped three steps away from Jian Mo, and his eyes fell on her... He didn''t speak, so he looked at her. It''s ridiculous to think that he sat here all night waiting for this woman! When did he need to wait for Gu Beichen? Or all night! Jian Mo was frightened by the gloomy momentum on Gu Beichen''s body and swallowed it secretly, trying to explain where she had gone, but she couldn''t say anything at all. "Jane Mo, you''re really good!" Gu Beichen said a word lightly, then turned around and changed his shoes and went out of the door. All the actions were calm and calm. For a time, Jian Mo could only look at him foolishly, and then woke up with a bang of the door. He... Just said that little white face didn''t send her an umbrella?! Jane Mo was suddenly surprised, short circuited in her mind for a few seconds, and hurried out of the door when she remembered something. She wanted to explain to Gu Beichen... Unfortunately, when her door opened, Xiao Jing drove over and just picked up Gu Beichen. She just saw the back of an arrogant and indifferent car. The rain outside has been a little heavy. Jane Mo gently fanned her eyes, and gradually spilled a helpless self mockery around her mouth... But just as she was about to enter the house, the door slammed and closed! Jane Mo thinks that if one thing goes wrong, it''s bad luck The door was closed by the wind, but her mobile phone and keys were in the house. She didn''t take them when she just chased them out! Forget it, she''s still wearing home slippers! When Li Xiaoyue came to pick up Jane Mo, she saw her pitifully sitting in the security room, and the whole popularity didn''t come together. "Get in the car!" Jane Mo got into the car and pulled the corners of her mouth, "I want to take a bath and change my clothes." "Jian Mo, I''ve never fucking seen you be such a wife..." Li Xiaoyue yelled angrily, and then took Jian Mo back to her small apartment. Jane Mo took a bath and came out. Li Xiaoyue had found her clothes. Fortunately, the two people have similar bodies, and she is used to keeping new clothes inside... Otherwise, in the rainy morning, she doesn''t know how to find clothes for this drowned chicken. "What''s going on?" Li Xiaoyue and others came out and prepared breakfast. "Last night, doctor Erwang said that my mother had a short awakening, so I went to the hospital... I didn''t come back all night, and then Gu Beichen''s girl was in lanze garden." Jane Mo was also angry when she thought about it. Generally, he would inform her in advance when he went to lanze garden. "Yesterday he was clearly with Lu man. Who knows he went back without saying a word." "Yo, what you said seems like someone else Chen Shao has been waiting for you all night..." Li Xiaoyue rolled her eyes. "Save it!" Jane Mo was stunned and thought, "it''s possible to go back to get things in the morning, but I''m just not here..." but it''s wrong to think about it, "but I didn''t have a car when I went back." "Curious? It''s very simple. You can call and ask your husband..." Li Xiaoyue said still unhappily. Seeing Jian Mo, she immediately wilted and ran up again. "Virtue, that''s all you can do." "He is the gold master. What can I do?" Jane Mo muttered and felt a little sad. She exchanged her body for two million yuan from Gu Beichen yesterday! Speaking of this, Li Xiaoyue also softened, "aunt, what''s the situation?" "Xiao Yue..." speaking of this, Jian Mo immediately smiled on her face. She shook Li Xiao Yue''s hand. "The doctor said that now that she is conscious, it will be beneficial to the transplant operation and have a greater chance to wake up!" Seeing Jian Mo like this, Li Xiaoyue''s nose was sour... From knowing Jian Mo, she had to strive for no compromise in her life, but the accident of that night completely crushed her. "Aunt will get better." Li Xiaoyue said with Jian Mo in her arms. Jane Mo nodded and smiled at the corners of her mouth... As long as her mother gets better, she can bear the pain that is not pain. On the way to send Jian Mo to work, Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo and said, "Tang Yu called me yesterday to ask about you and Gu Beichen..." "Yes." Jane Mo answered gently. Because she didn''t sleep all night, she closed her eyes and pretended to sleep. Li Xiaoyue stopped at the red light. "Have you ever thought about telling Chu Zixiao the truth?" Her voice was a little heavy, "I heard Tang Yu say that he called you at the beginning, but you didn''t answer, and then the machine stopped. Chu Zixiao wanted to come back with a very important case at that time..." Jane Mo didn''t make a sound, but listened quietly, more like she had fallen asleep. "Didn''t you come back in the end?" Jane Mo slowly opened her eyes and put a touch of bitterness on the corners of her mouth. No one knows that at that moment, although she gave up him, how she hoped to suddenly see him in the street when she was helpless... He ran over, hugged her tightly and told her: with him, everything would pass! Unfortunately, no... she is not a dreamer, but she did it at that moment. However, Chu Zixiao is not waiting, but a man named Gu Beichen. "He had a car accident on his way to the airport..." Li Xiaoyue glanced at Jian Mo, "so he didn''t come back at the last minute." Jane Mo frowned instantly, as if the sleepiness and fatigue in the bottom of her eyes were gone... She suddenly sat up and looked at Li Xiaoyue, "what do you mean?" "Literally." Li Xiaoyue shrugged. "I didn''t ask for details. Anyway, Chu Zixiao is fine now, isn''t he? Just, Jian Mo, although the original thing was helpless, it was unfair to him." Jian Mo was paralyzed in her seat. Li Xiaoyue sent her to the downstairs of the office building without speaking. She just said slowly when she got off the bus: "if I miss, I miss... If I have nostalgia for Chu Zixiao now, it will be him who is embarrassed!" Even if Gu Beichen doesn''t care, will Gu CI allow a woman who is her brother to become her son''s girlfriend? A family like them can''t afford to lose face... Although few people know that she is Mrs. gu! Li Xiaoyue sighed and knew that now there was no way to go back... If she swayed left and right, would Chu Zixiao get hurt? She didn''t know, but Jian Mo would. "Girl," Li Xiaoyue asked, "your keys and cell phones are locked in the house. Where are you going after work at night? Or... Or come to me?" "Say again..." Jian Mo shrugged and seemed to sweep away the haze just now. "Why don''t... I ask Chen Shao to wait for me?" As she spoke, she seemed to be amused by herself, and the corners of her mouth laughed. Li Xiaoyue thought Jian Mo was crazy. "If Gu Beichen will wait for you, I''ll treat you to a big meal!" Jane Mo smiled at Li Xiaoyue and felt that she was really wishful thinking... Gu Beichen waited for her? It would be nice not to shut him down Chapter 54 Because she didn''t sleep all night, Jane Mo''s whole spirit was in a trance... Even the routine weekly morning meeting, she spent it in a muddle until everyone was excited behind, and she still looked at everyone at a loss. "Jian Mo, the internal design of the concert hall is fully entrusted to Xiangyu. In the industry, you can be regarded as a light for Xiangyu..." Tang Haoyang looked at Jian Mo with a smile and said, "the most important thing is that the emperor called and agreed to Xiangyu''s participation in the competition of the club!" Jane Mo frowned slightly. She was just deserting. She didn''t remember what they said... She blinked a little blankly, and the night behind her had leaned forward. "Sister Mo, I''m talking about Sujun North concert hall." Xiang night tried to restrain the excitement in his body and said, "and the emperor agreed that we compare the draft..." Jane Mo immediately frowned and asked, "what do you mean?" Tang Haoyang glanced helplessly at his eyes and then asked, "Jane Mo, you''re not in good spirits today..." "Well, I''m a little uncomfortable in the rain." Jane Mo talks nonsense at the corners of her mouth. "If you know how to fight, you should also take good care of your body..." "Thank you, director." Jane Mo answered, but still some were not in the state and asked, "well, the emperor agreed with us to compare the draft... What does it mean?" "Didn''t you talk about it yourself?" Tang Haoyang looked at Jian Mo with some consternation, "I heard that words like Chen Shao. Thank you for your friendship or something yesterday. Give me the opportunity..." Jane Mo felt cold all over in an instant. She didn''t know whether the so-called "friendship of yesterday" meant that she delivered dinner to the man at noon yesterday and then served him personally, or whether she didn''t go back all night last night. Gu Beichen, you are a dead pervert! Jane Mo clenched her teeth and could only twitch the corners of her mouth. She pretended to laugh and remembered But then, a group of people in the engineering design department began to ask about Gu Beichen''s friendship under various names! What''s more, the unbearable rumors spread rapidly to other departments... Anyway, Jian Mo has now become a "celebrity" of Xiangyu and even the whole office building of Lingfeng International Center! It used to be Chu Zixiao, but now it''s Gu Beichen... It seems that she has realized her great "sentiment of three and four"! What is raised by the bud, what is hidden by the rules, and even the upper level with the body... It''s all like this anyway. Because Jane Mo didn''t sleep, the whole person was drowsy. She was caught in the rain in the morning. Finally, she stayed up until noon, so she slept on her desk for a while and didn''t even eat lunch. In the afternoon, I drank several cups of coffee in a dispirited spirit, and then I didn''t "pass out". "Sister Mo, did you become a thief last night?" Sent several materials and plans to the evening, and they all felt that Jane was about to fall asleep. Jane Mo half narrowed her eyes and said helplessly, "there was a family in the hospital last night. I stayed with her all night..." she got up and went to make herself a cup of coffee. "Is your family okay?" As soon as I heard it in the evening, I hurried to care. Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and shook her head, "old problems, nothing..." she said. She looked at the rain outside through the window, and felt some inexplicable sadness. "Sister Mo, sister Mo -" "Ah? Ah -" Jane Mo suddenly woke up and felt that her hand was extremely hot. "Bang" threw the cup, and her hand was red with the overflowing boiling water. Xiang night hurriedly took out a paper towel and went to wipe it. He frowned and asked, "sister Mo, what''s the matter with you... No, ask for leave and go back to bed early? There''s nothing wrong today anyway." Jane Mo looked at the red one on her hand and mocked herself. "I''m fine. I guess I didn''t sleep. I''m a little dizzy. What did you just say?" Xiang night knew that Jian Mo was a workaholic. It was rare for her to affect her work for personal reasons. "The plan of Chu Tang Law Institute came out." "Oh..." Jane Mo answered, with some hot hands. "I''ll find a chance to make an appointment with him." Nodding to her later, she still looked at Jian Mo with some worry... And then made her coffee again before leaving the tea room. Jane Mo blew on the back of her red hand. Looking at the weather outside, she felt that she must rush with the rainy day I don''t know whether Gu Beichen went back in lanzeyuan one night or in the morning, but anyway, he gave her so much money yesterday and gave her a chance to compare the manuscript today. She should be soft first. With this in mind, Jian Mo took out her mobile phone and sent a text message to Gu Beichen: I hate rainy days. I forgot to bring my key and mobile phone... My hand was burned! Looking at the prompt of successful sending, Jian Mo had a little expectation and looked forward to Gu Beichen''s reply. However, until she got off work, she didn''t wait for Gu Beichen to reply When the car was sent for repair, the keys and mobile phones were left in lanzeyuan... Jian Mo asked whether to find someone to unlock the lock, but he didn''t know how. When he was sitting in a taxi, he reported the address of lanzeyuan directly. When people came down, they looked at the villas under the misty rain with the umbrella Li Xiaoyue had stuffed her in the morning, and felt that they were subconsciously masochistic. Holding a little, it''s really a little extravagant hope... Jane Mo thought that if Gu Beichen came back, she would explain to him where she went last night. If he doesn''t come back... Then she directly buys her mobile phone again. As for the "home" of lanzeyuan, she won''t go back! But when he saw Spyker safely parked in the parking space, rang the doorbell and watched Gu Beichen open the door for her, Jian Mo''s nose was sour at that moment... Why? Completely moved! No matter whether Gu Beichen came back because of her or not, for a "wandering soul", it''s warm to see someone waiting at home. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo shouted. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes just looked at her indifferently, didn''t speak, just turned and went upstairs, and then... The sound of "bang" left to Jian Mo when she slammed the study door pulled back her moved thoughts. Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth, some of which were very boring. While she turned over a pair of home slippers again and put them on, she picked up her mobile phone and looked through missed calls and text messages she didn''t read. She also muttered: "it''s the same as two or five hundred and eighty thousand. Don''t be at home if you have the ability... Play the cold war, childish!" Jane Mo saw that the phone was not too important. She basically couldn''t get through. Later, she found her on the Internet... Text messages are almost the same. She just sent a text message back to Li Xiaoyue: Gu Beichen is really waiting for the door. Remember to look back and think about where to eat the big meal! Li Xiaoyue replied quickly: I wipe it. Has Gu Beichen changed his gender? Jane Mo was a little proud, and even the corners of her mouth were filled with a smile: willing to admit defeat, ha, I went to please my man. Li Xiaoyue: worthless! Jane Mo also felt that she was worthless. What might she do? Now the big house is filled with Gu Beichen''s message from his indifferent eyes: I''m very angry. Come and coax me! Who let that man be her gold owner and she is his legal warm bed? He opened the door for her at home. Jane Mo felt that she should please Gu Beichen Chapter 55 Jane Mo went directly upstairs to the study and went in without knocking on the door. "Why, not even the most basic politeness?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo coldly, and the eagle''s eyes shot two sharp and cold lights. Jian Mo didn''t expect Gu Beichen to hold a video conference, but everyone has come in. Just be willful Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with a slight frown. Instead of quitting, she came in... What''s more, she didn''t go anywhere. She had to climb up the desk, and then climbed towards him with her hands and legs like a kitten The sound of "pa" came. It was Gu Beichen''s subconscious sound of pressing the camera down. Jian Mo propped up the edge of the table, looked at Gu Beichen''s deeper and deeper eyes, clenched his teeth, and directly leaned over and kissed him, "ah Chen... Did you come back to wait for me?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but was tickled by Jane Mo''s provocative posture and voice. This time, Gu Beichen pulled out the power supply directly, and then he dragged Jian Mo down and directly pressed her against the desk and kissed her fiercely Jian Mo didn''t sleep all night. At this moment, she was directly dazed by Gu Beichen''s strong physical strength, "ah Chen, I can''t... ah... Gu Beichen, are you a dog?" Gu Beichen raised her mouth and looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. "Jian Mo, don''t try to challenge my bottom line... Don''t go home all night or hook up with a man in the future, be careful I''ll break you completely!" Jian Mo still hooked his neck and said coyly: "I promised you, will you promise me and don''t spread gossip?" Gu Beichen''s sight suddenly became dangerous. His cold, carved face bullied Jian Mo, "why, you start to want to take care of me?" Jane Mo smiled, but when that smile spread to the corners of her eyes, she didn''t go any deeper, "how can I care about you?" She pecked at the corner of his lips and said, "I had a friend''s mother in the hospital last night, so I didn''t sleep all night... Ah Chen, can you do it quickly? I''m so sleepy." In a word, she conveyed two meanings... Explaining why she didn''t come back last night and expressing that she was very tired. Gu Beichen''s eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply. Today, he went to the company. At several meetings in the morning, emperor group was scolded by him from top to bottom Finally, Susan put Xiao Mo in front of the document and asked him to check the result. Because Su Mo suddenly showed signs of awakening, Jian Mo stayed in the hospital all night and didn''t leave until dawn in the morning... Special note: Su Junli wasn''t there! What was Gu Beichen doing then? Well, look at the text message Jane Mo sent him... Yes, that''s right! Although he didn''t reply in the end... Just as she was about to leave work, the ghost and God put down the unfinished documents and drove back by himself. When passing the drugstore, he even bought scald ointment. After Gu Beichen came back, he felt that he was looking for a cheap rhythm, so he threw the scald cream into the trash can "Gu Zuoyan is good at his kung fu..." Gu Beichen''s voice was low and magnetic, and a layer of crisp heat was sprinkled on Jian Mo''s ear. "What happened to Su Junli if the matter last night was not investigated?" Jian Mo rolled his eyes and said pitifully after saying something secretly: "he promised to give me the concert hall design and reciprocity... I should invite him back to dinner, right?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen seemed to agree, "how can you repay me if I give you water?" Gu Beichen, you are a fucking bird! Jian Mo''s teeth itched in her heart, but finally she could only overflow between her teeth word by word and said, "except for meat compensation... It seems that you are not interested in me!" "OK, let''s do it again..." Gu Beichen''s eyes twinkled with black light. Then... Jian Mo half leaned on his desk and satisfied Gu Beichen''s animal bath! Jane Mo was exhausted. She just took a shower and fell into bed. She didn''t sleep all night. With just intense exercise... She fell asleep in less than a minute. On this rainy night, she had a dream In the dream, she was no longer alone. Gu Beichen took the scald cream and wiped her scalded hand. Her gentle movement was like her hand was a handicraft Finally, gently embrace her and fall asleep. ¡­¡­ Tang Yu handed a thick pile of information to Chu Zixiao in his hand. His face was a little dignified. He listened to the rain beating on the roof and made a sound of "Ping Ping Ping". "You asked me to find someone to check these," Tang Yu said in a dignified voice. "Zixiao, there are some things... I''m afraid I can''t go back." Chu Zixiao frowned slightly at Tang Yu, then opened the file bag and took out the information inside... Accidentally, something slipped. He bent down to pick it up. When he saw the picture in his hand with the light reflected from the street lamp, he frowned slightly. Tang Yu looked at the photo and his face became more and more dignified. "Yuanda construction suffered from the trap of the developer, and the company was in danger..." he said slightly. "Later, on a rainy night, Jian Zhanfeng just got up the main building in phase III of Yujing lake and fell off the building." Chu Zixiao''s face was cold for a moment. He looked at Tang Yu, then took back his eyes and began to look at the data... But the more he looked back, the more he felt thrilled. Finally, he only felt that the rain in early autumn was particularly cold. "It''s impossible..." at last, Chu Zixiao''s face became pale, and even his hand holding the information trembled slightly. He looked at Tang Yu and tried to get a veto from him "Zixiao, you know that what is said here is true." Tang Yu frowned slightly. "You and I are both lawyers. We know where the bend is... So you can see through it at a glance. Starting from the contract between Yuanda and the developer, this is actually a trap." "But... Why?" Chu Zixiao frowned, eager to find the clue of veto. Tang Yu shook his head, "I can''t find..." he said slightly, "in fact, at the beginning, I thought Jian Zhanfeng''s death was just an accident. However, when I saw this contract, I knew... I''m afraid there''s something fishy inside. And..." his breath was slightly dignified, but he still said, "... It may have something to do with Chu group!" Chapter 56 Tang Yu''s words completely shattered Chu Zixiao''s extravagant hopes... When he just saw the contract, he actually saw the clue at a glance. It''s just that he doesn''t want to believe it''s true! "Ha, ha ha..." Chu Zixiao sneered. "How many people know about this contract?" "Not much." Tang Yu was calm, "I can get the photocopy, that''s also because of you." After a slight meal, he continued, "Zixiao, in fact, what you and I are worried about now should not be this, but... Whether Jian Mo knows it or not." Chu Zixiao closed his eyes and breathed slightly, "ah Yu, let me think." Tang Yu didn''t speak, but lay quietly on the car seat and watched the wiper swing, but there was no way to clean the rain... It''s like people''s past. No matter how you hide now, you will leave a wound in your heart. Yuanda has always had a good reputation in the industry, but later, it was slowly hollowed out and fell into a trap, as if it had no origin... It felt framed for no reason. There is a reason for everything, but the only thing he can think of is... The relationship between Zixiao and Jian Mo, when Chu''s group is such a large group company and a small construction company. "Zixiao, if Uncle forced Jian Zhanfeng because of your relationship with Jian mo..." "Impossible!" Chu Zixiao''s breathing became more and more rapid. When he opened his eyes, he was scarlet, "my father and mother don''t know me and Jane mo. you should know that they don''t participate in my life..." Tang Yu was in trouble. "I really can''t figure it out. Why?" Chu Zixiao''s hand was so tight that his knuckles made a "quack" sound. In such a rainy night, it became extraordinarily penetrating, "whether Jian Mo knew it or not, hide it first..." Tang Yu nodded, "what do you want to do?" "There''s always a reason, isn''t there?" Chu Zixiao put down a word, then turned and got off the car, got on the Ferrari parked aside in the rain, and then drove away with the rain. Tang Yu sat in the car for a long time and couldn''t recover until Chu Zixiao''s car disappeared in the depths of his sight. He gently opened his lips and slowly murmured: "I can''t go back... Zixiao!" There are few fair things in this world. Only time is fair to everyone, whether you are happy or sad... There has never been a slightest difference in what you are given every minute and every second. When Jane Mo''s biological clock rang, she curled up and didn''t want to open her eyes... As soon as she turned over, she wanted to continue to sleep, but the sudden tingling in her hand made her open her eyes in an instant. "Hissing" spilled over the delicate and soft lips. Jian Mo suddenly sat up and saw a faint reddish on her left hand. Her skin is a little sensitive. She was scalded with boiling water until she was red yesterday... It is much better now, but she has just been pressed under her body and has some pain. Jane Mo closed her dry eyes and suddenly found that Gu Beichen was not in the bedroom. She frowned slightly and slowly turned back in her mind. She remembered that she was too tired last night and fell asleep by herself... Later, she didn''t know whether Gu Beichen came to sleep or not. Gu Beichen was at home, but she didn''t see him at first sight and said, "ah Chen, good morning!" I''m not used to it When she opened the quilt and wanted to get out of bed, Jane Mo''s action suddenly stagnated... Then she looked slightly sideways at the bedside table... Took the scald cream with traces in her hand, and then looked at her left hand. She widened her eyes slightly in amazement. Last night... Not a dream?! Jane Mo hurried out of bed with scald cream and even forgot to wear slippers. She hurried out of the bedroom barefoot. First, she swept the circle and saw that there was no one in the sight downstairs. Then she hurried to the study... There was no one. Jane Mo went upstairs barefoot and found a circle. When she saw that there was no Spyker in the yard, her heart suddenly surged up with loss... Her hand holding the scald cream also clenched. Turning slowly, Jane Mo felt very funny at the moment "Gu Beichen, what kind of person are you?" Jane Mo looked down at the scald cream in her hand and smiled with self mockery, "I saw the text message and bought scald cream..." Taking a deep breath, Jane Mo lifted her eyes and looked around the huge villa. The star eyes moved slightly and slipped through a strange emotion After going upstairs to wash, Jane Mo changed her clothes and went downstairs. Because the rain didn''t stop, the cold and humid atmosphere in the air became stronger and stronger, which made the end of summer span to autumn. "Dong Dong!" Jane Mo frowned slightly and went to open the door At the door, Xiao Jing stood there with a smile on his mouth. When he saw her, he pushed his glasses slightly and said, "Miss Jane, Chen Shao asked me to come and take you to work." Jane Mo was stunned, "why?" "By the way..." Xiao Jing''s smile deepened a little, "well, I went to finalize the matter of participating in the draft comparison with Xiangyu." Jian Mo said "Oh" and subconsciously looked at the car parked outside... It''s not Gu Beichen''s luxurious Spyker, it''s a Bentley. At this moment, all her thoughts fell on Gu Beichen. Jian Mo didn''t even think about how Gu Beichen''s private special help would be sent out after signing the comparison draft?! It was raining outside, and there was no hope of taking a taxi in lanzeyuan. Jian Mo was not hypocritical and got on Xiao Jing''s car. Along the way, Xiao Jing drove at ease, and Jian Mo sat in the back... It was the first time for her to take Xiao Jing''s car. There was no gu Beichen nearby, so she was not used to it. Looking out of the window, Jian Mo asked, "why did he suddenly agree to Xiangyu''s participation in the comparison?" Xiao Jing looked back from the rearview mirror, smiled and said, "why does Miss Jane think?" "..." Jian Mo looked at Xiao Jing and felt that this man was the same as what he learned behind Gu Beichen. What''s the use of his answer now? It''s the same as no answer! Suddenly "Stop!" Jane shouted. Xiao Jing didn''t know what had happened, so he stepped on the brake Jane Mo opened the door and got out of the car at the first time. Xiao Jing shouted the word "Jane" after saying "Miss Jane". She had been running towards the rear Xiao Jing was a little stunned. He quickly parked the car on the side and got off with an umbrella. He saw that Jian Mo had kicked off her high heels and began to chase a man. Xiao Jing also Gu Bei to others and hurried forward... No matter who Jian Mo chased, if there was any accident, Chen had to peel his skin?! "Jane, stop!" Jian Mo roared at the voice in front of him, but he couldn''t care to be hurt by the stone under his feet, and chased him desperately, "Jian truss --" The sharp cry cut through the thick rain drops, and Jian Mo began to cry loudly towards the figure running farther and farther, "Jian Chang, you bastard... Sobbing..." "Miss Jane, are you all right?" Xiao Jing hurried to keep Jian Mo out of the rain with an umbrella. He saw that Jian Mo had bent down, and then squatted on the ground and began to cry. The raindrops knocked on the umbrella and made a "crackling" sound. Xiao Jing wanted to comfort Jane Mo, although he didn''t know what had happened... Just when he hung his head, he saw that from around her feet, it gradually overflowed red and dyed all the rainwater falling on the ground red. "Miss Jane, are you hurt?!" Chapter 57 Xiao Jing couldn''t take care of anything else. He threw an umbrella and picked up Jian Mo, and hurried to the direction of the car In due time, in a nearby breakfast shop, a reporter put down half of his meal and took a camera to take a picture of the scene "Xiao Jing, I''m fine." When Jian Mo was thrown into the car by Xiao Jing, she reacted. After wiping the dining paper, her toes were cut by the glass stone head. "Miss Jane, I''d better go to the clinic first." Xiao Jing drove to a clinic in front of him. "Besides, you have to change your clothes and throw away your shoes." Jane Momo is silent, and then she can only let Xiao Jing take her to the clinic to deal with the toes pointed by the small stone. At the same time, I called Xiangwan and said something about a little accident. I might be late. Xiao Jing''s speed is very fast. Before Jane Mo wrapped it up for ten minutes, she bought her clothes and shoes After borrowing the clinic and changing the place, Xiao Jing helped Jane Mo into the car and then sent her to the company. "Miss Jane," Xiao Jing asked after looking at Jane Mo, "who did you just chase..." "My brother!" Jane Mo didn''t hide it. If Xiao Jing wants to know, she doesn''t think it should be difficult. Xiao Jing looked at Jian Mo again. "I didn''t expect Miss Jian to have a brother..." Jane Mo frowned slightly. She thought Xiao Jing''s words were a little strange. But she didn''t think much. Xiao Jing''s speed is fast. When he arrives at the company, it''s just time for work. The advantage of being in a large office building is that no one knows that Jian Mo got off Xiao Jing''s car It''s just that Jane Mo is happy a little early. Just when she was booed, a gossip began to spread... Even if Jane Mo didn''t like studying gossip very much, she soon saw the high-definition photo. Jian Mo squatted in the rain and cried barefoot. Xiao Jing covered her with an umbrella... Then Xiao Jing picked her up and left, leaving a lonely umbrella lying on the ground in the rain. Well, dog blood can string up a little Taiwanese romance. Indeed, in the picture, she was Xiao Jing''s girlfriend. They quarreled in the rain and ended up with Jian Mo''s foot injury and Xiao Jing''s heartache "Sister Mo, it''s so touching!" Xiang Wan is still a little girl with a dream. When he saw this report, he looked with star eyes. "No wonder the emperor group would agree to Xiangyu''s participation in the draft comparison. It turned out that... It was entirely the credit of Xiao tezhu!" The corner of Jian Mo''s mouth twitched uncontrollably... It''s chaotic enough now. At this moment, he added such a poor shaking play with dog blood. Although Xiao Jing is a special helper, it''s hard to estimate his worth because Gu Beichen is the one who follows him... Even if you know her relationship with Gu Beichen, you don''t know... You don''t know how many versions to extend. "I say Jane Mo is not simple? You don''t believe it!" "Don''t you just look good and play cheap all day long... Hum, it seems that you''re afraid that others don''t know how much she can hook people." "Yes!" "I don''t understand. Why do these men all seem to be clinging to Jane foam... Why do men like such a coquettish bitch!" The man leaned against the wall and said, "at least you don''t like it. The man will never stop to look at it." Then he glanced at the women, "and Jane Mo is not what you can say." The women who talked about Xiao Jing opened their mouths one by one and twitched awkwardly Xiao Jing withdrew his eyes coldly and wanted to lift his step away. Who knows that his sight touched, he just saw Jian Mo and didn''t know when to stand opposite. Xiao Jing walked forward and bowed slightly and said hello respectfully, "Miss Jane!" Jian Mo smiled and looked at Xiao Jing''s intentional appearance. Yu Guang just touched the stunned look on the women''s face and suddenly felt funny, "it''s all done?" Xiao Jing raised his eyes and nodded, "Chen Shao ordered that if Miss Jian needs anything next time, she can contact him directly... In order to thank you for your help to Chen Shao, as long as you need it and don''t touch the bottom line of Chen Shao, everything will help Miss Jian achieve her wish." Jane Mo smiled more and more brightly, nodded happily, and said in a voice that only two people could hear: "later, your boss knows that you have to peel off your skin because you falsely preach the edict." Xiao Jingwei was stunned, then smiled and said, "it''s the original!" Now, Jane Mo is stunned in the same place "In addition," Xiao Jing''s voice also became a height that only two people could hear. "At noon, Chen Shao and I will go to Binhai on business, and the time is uncertain... Chen Shao said that the spare key is on Susan''s side, if..." he held back a smile, "if Miss Jane forgets to bring the key next time, don''t tangle up and send him a text message." "..." Jane Mo twitched uncontrollably at the corners of her mouth, then tried to pull a smile, but scolded Gu Beichen in her heart. Xiao Jing lowered his eyes and glanced at Jian Mo''s feet. "The wound is not big, but... Miss Jian still pays attention to the wound." Jane nodded. "Thank you." Turned around and nodded slightly to leave the scene When Jian Mo saw that he had left, he turned to the person in charge of the connection of the last design and construction. When he passed the women, he didn''t take a look. "Oh, look at that arrogant virtue... It''s disgusting!" The small voice behind her just let Jane Mo hear it, but she was not in the mood to ignore... Rumors. The more you explain, the more you can''t explain clearly. After everything was finalized, Jian Mo went back to the design department Tang Haoyang timely followed in and announced the results of this quarter. "In order to celebrate everyone''s hard work, president Yu made a speech, and the bonus of the engineering design department doubled this quarter!" "Director, is it true?" "Well! Not only that, you can celebrate in the evening and I''ll pay for it." Tang Haoyang looked at Jian Mo, "Jian Mo, you''ve done the most credit this time. Where are you going?" Jane Mo didn''t really want to go, but she didn''t want to sweep everyone''s nature. After asking for opinions, she unanimously asked to go to heaven night. "You really have the heart to kill!" Tang Haoyang pretended to be distressed and joked, "OK, OK, heaven night is heaven night. In the future, we will work hard, eat, drink, play and bonus everything!" As soon as they heard it, they cheered... However, in the end, they all said they were stained with the light of Jane foam. The engineering design department is very jubilant here, which will inevitably cause the red eyes of other departments... Jian Mo said that she was unable to deal with it. Go her own way and let others talk about it. Jian Mo thought of the emperor''s comparison, which was entirely due to Gu Beichen. She should please the gold Lord anyway, so she took out her mobile phone and sent him a greasy text message: husband, have a nice trip! Gu Beichen had just arrived at the airport. When he received the text message, his sight was slightly deeper. Subconsciously, the corners of his mouth slightly hooked a comfortable arc Although, clearly know, Jane Mo''s sincerity of this message needs to be investigated! "Chen Shao, what happened?" Seeing Gu Beichen''s cheap smile, Xiao Jing deliberately pretended not to understand and asked. Gu Beichen instantly restrained his smile, and the eagle''s eyes squinted at Xiao Jing, as if he suddenly remembered something. He said coldly, "let you send someone to the clinic, and deduct 30% of the year-end bonus!" As soon as Xiao Jing heard this, his face was like being struck by thunder. He said wrongfully, "Chen Shao, this is revenge..." Chapter 58 On the way to Haibin City, Xiao Jing was in a bad mood... Chen Shao made it clear that he hated not reporting Jian Mo''s injury in the morning. "Chen Shao, in the morning..." Xiao Jing thought for a while and decided to take the initiative to explain, "it seems that Miss Jane saw her brother in the morning, so she got off and went after him." "Yes." Gu Beichen continued to look at the financial magazine and answered lazily. Xiao Jing secretly thought: pack it. You obviously want to know... You don''t care if you have to pack it. "Chen Shao, according to the situation at that time, Miss Jane''s brother seems to be hiding from Miss Jane. So... Do you want to check it later?" Xiao Jing asked tentatively. Gu Beichen flipped the magazine''s hand and paused slightly. The eagle''s eyes tilted slightly and his thin lips gently asked, "are you very interested in Jane Mo?" "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth, shook his head quickly, pulled at the corners of his mouth and said, "how? I''m not interested at all!" "Oh?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "don''t you care?" Xiao Jing''s face was instantly rigid. He had been with Gu Beichen for so many years. If he couldn''t understand the meaning of this expression, he would be confused in vain. "Chen Shao, I mean, I don''t care personally, but because Chen Shao cares, I will care for Chen Shao!" Alas, it''s not easy to be a special helper again... Look at the degree of his dog leg?! Gu Beichen coldly hissed and restrained his eyes, but said faintly, "when things are finished, check what''s going on with her brother." "Yes..." Xiao Jing secretly hated his teeth and couldn''t help crying: my Chen Shaoye, is your sullen physique suitable for the setting of crazy bullying President? Gu Beichen''s business trip was originally expected to take only three or five days. However, after going, he found that things were far more difficult than expected. He didn''t return to Los Angeles for ten days. Jane Mo has been used to Gu Beichen''s coming and going for the past two years, but she doesn''t think there''s anything... She''s busy at work every day. She gets together occasionally with her colleagues or Li Xiaoyue in the evening. If she can''t stay in the media room of the villa and watch a movie, her life is still natural and unrestrained. Of course, if you can avoid Chu Zixiao in such a natural and unrestrained place, it will be really comfortable! Unfortunately, no! Chu Zixiao asked Jian Mo to do the design of the law of Chu and Tang Dynasty... She can only harden her head. In the future, everyone lives in a city. When she and Gu Beichen are not divorced, she is still Chu Zixiao''s little aunt... Well, although there are some violations, it is impossible not to meet. Jane Mo thought, it''s a big deal to break up unhappily this time! "That''s all the basic questions. If the Chu debate doesn''t need to be modified, I''ll produce 3D renderings in these two days..." Jian Mo raised his eyes and said with a serious face, "renderings are meaningless, engineering department?" "Good!" Chu Zixiao answered faintly. Chu Zixiao''s special cooperation from beginning to end surprised Jian mo. "Do you have anything to do after work?" Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, and his tone was a little cautious. Jian Mo''s action of collecting the data stagnated and looked at Chu Zixiao. The instinct of the fundus overflowed a trace of resistance. Chu Zixiao slipped at the bottom of his eyes and was injured. But think about the previous times, the two people were at a crossfire every time. They couldn''t help laughing at themselves, "Mo Mo, before... Sorry, I was too fierce." Jane Mo drooped her eyes and suddenly blocked her heart. The feeling was like cotton stuffed in her heart, which made people suffocate a little. "It''s all over, I don''t want to mention it." Chu Zixiao mocked himself and said, "can we have dinner together that night?" Jane nodded, "OK!" Chu Zixiao smiled at the corners of his mouth. That smile was still a little careful to please, "I''ll come to pick you up at night." Jane Mo didn''t refuse. Anyway, it''s as bad as what the company has passed on her... It''s hard not to doubt that she is an ordinary office worker who wears either luxury goods or high-end customization. Because the latest design has been very smooth, Jane foam fix Chu Chu Xiao after that is still very idle. Jian Mo was half lying on the table looking at the computer. The picture news was from Gu Beichen. She stared at it like this and didn''t move for a long time. "Sister mo..." Xiang night didn''t know when she came to Jane Mo''s back, looked at the page on her computer and said with a thief smile, "how can you be the same as suffering from lovesickness? Hmm? Honestly, are you secretly in love with Chen Shao?" Jane Mo''s face turned red in an instant. Just when she wanted to refute, she suddenly jumped away to the night "Sister Mo, wait!" Xiang night looked at Jian Mo with some fuss, "tut Tut, this is the rhythm of blushing? Haha, sister Mo, you won''t really be less interested in Chen?" Jane Mo was stunned and subconsciously rejected, "you think too much..." "I really think too much?" Jane Mo rolled her eyes. "That man like a stallion has been gossiping all day. Am i attracted to him?" She sneered, "if you want to be moved, it''s better to leave Su Jun!" When I saw her at night, I didn''t believe it. However, after listening to Jian Mo''s words, I thought it was very reasonable. "Also, Su Junli has no scandal." She leaned forward, "sister Mo, you know what? Now Su Junli is spreading on the Internet, saying that his music can make people pregnant..." "..." Jian Mo heard, "ha ha" twice, "how many people is Su Jun responsible for?" Xiangwan glanced. "Sister Mo, that''s a metaphor... A metaphor? That means Su Junli was very handsome when playing the piano... Very tender, especially..." she put her hands on her chin and looked infatuated, "in short, it''s very charming!" Jian Mo''s eyes reflected the scene of the charity concert that night. Under the soft light, Su Jun slightly hung a gentle and elegant smile from the corner of his mouth... His slender and powerful fingers danced on the black-and-white keys like an elf. At that time, he seemed to be the unity of piano people. Nothing in the world could separate each other. "It''s really charming..." "Right?!" Xiang night didn''t pay attention to Jane Mo''s expression. He just grabbed her hand and begged, "sister Mo, I''m looking for you right now just for him." "Huh?" Xiang night smiled brightly. "Su Junli will have his first solo concert in Los Angeles next month. Sister mo... You can get me two tickets..." she said, holding Jian Mo''s hand and shaking it coyly, "sister Mo, sister mo..." Jane Mo was a little sad and wanted to refuse. However, seeing that the fairy''s eyes were full of longing for the world at night, she became greedy, "I just ask for you whether you can get it, I can''t guarantee it." "Good!" As soon as Xiang Wanyi heard it, he hurriedly answered, "thank you, sister mo." Jane Mo smiled. Just when she wanted to say something, her mobile phone rang, showing that it was Mr. g... looking at the night, she picked up the phone and put it in her ear. Because Xiang night was still in front of her, she was not so bored. She just said, "Hello, Jane Mo!" Gu Beichen frowned at once, and then said coldly, "I''ll be in Los Angeles at seven. Come and pick me up!" Chapter 59 Before Jian Mo had time to speak, there was a hanging up tone of "Dudu" on the phone. She was slightly stunned. She didn''t know what Gu Beichen meant. Her car hasn''t been taken back yet. According to Su Junli, the collision wasn''t very serious, but it hasn''t been repaired for more than ten days... However, she''s not in a hurry, except for some inconvenience to work. But pick up Doesn''t Gu Beichen usually send his car directly to the parking lot of the airport? Jane Mo frowned slightly and dialed back, but she had prompted to turn off Pie your mouth, Jian Mo hasn''t thought through Gu Beichen''s nerve yet, the phone rings again... The tail number is "3719", which is called by Chu Zixiao. Then, before Chu Zixiao could speak, Jian Mo took the lead in opening his mouth: "I''m afraid I can''t have dinner with you tonight." Chu Zixiao paused slightly and said, "me too... So I called to make another appointment." Then he suddenly frowned, "you..." his voice hesitated, "... It''s not because of Beichen?" "Yes!" Jane Mo answered. Now the relationship between them has been known, and she has nothing to hide. "He just called me and asked me to pick up the plane." Chu Zixiao was silent again. A touch of bitterness spilled from the corners of his mouth and said, "I''ll pick you up first and then go to the airport together." "The man in his mouth was so childish that he knew that he was being scolded." After work, Chu Zixiao came to pick up Jian Mo and went to the airport together. At the beginning, the atmosphere between the two seemed to be a little stiff, and no one spoke. Chu Zixiao didn''t break the silence until he got on the highway to the airport, "foam..." "Huh?" Jane Mo glanced at him. Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo and his eyes fell back in front. "You," he said slightly, "how are you now?" Beichen has never been interested in women. The only time he was interested in women was many years ago. Jane Mo slowly lay back on the seat. The wind in Los Angeles has been a little cold in autumn. She closed the window and said slowly, "it''s good." Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo again and felt a little heavy, "if... I mean if," his voice was low and dull, "if Beichen let you go, can we start again?" Jane Mo''s heart was heavy and depressed. Her eyes fell on the appearance of the airport getting closer and closer in front. There was not much emotion in her voice and said, "Zixiao, I can''t go back... No matter why we separated at the beginning, I''m now your little aunt in terms of morality and ethics!" Chu Zixiao''s hand suddenly clenched the steering wheel, because he used too much strength to make a "quack" sound. What can be more ironic than the fact that a lover who has been in love for a lifetime has become his own little aunt? "Mo Mo, why did we get here?" Chu Zixiao''s voice was filled with solemn sadness, "at the beginning, it was this airport. You once said you would wait for me..." there was something cracked on Junyi''s face, and his heart was torn. I thought it was all her fault. Her inexplicable breakup made him hate for two years! But in the end, whether she knows it or not, uncle Jane''s death has something to do with the Chu family... Does fate make people? Maybe Jane Mo didn''t answer. Some things don''t need answers, because there is no answer at all. The car stopped in the parking space, and Chu Zixiao and Jian Mo silently arrived at the VIP pick-up port all the way The airport broadcast heard that the plane from Binhai city to Los Angeles had landed. After waiting for more than ten minutes, people came out one after another. From a distance, Gu Beichen saw Chu Zixiao and Jian Mo standing side by side. Their faces were stiff one by one. That feeling... Made him uncomfortable. Xiao Jing thinks that Chen Shao can''t find happiness for himself. What he says is to help his nephew and little aunt cut the mess quickly, but he looks like Chen Shao is more upset. "Well..." Xiao Jing thought he''d better stay away from the war ring. "I''ll send the information to Susan first." Then he nodded slightly with Jian Mo and Chu Zixiao and walked away. "Mom said she would go home for dinner after picking you up..." Chu Zixiao behaved as usual, as if there was no Jian Mo around. Gu Beichen answered, and the eagle''s eyes slipped over Jian Mo indifferently Jane Mo just sipped her lips and didn''t say anything. On the way back, Chu Zixiao drove alone. Gu Beichen drove the Spyker parked at the airport with Jian Mo, and the front and rear two cars drove to Lishan villa. "I''m not happy to let you pick me up?" Gu Beichen asked coldly, breaking the silence. Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and smiled brightly, "how can it be?! it''s an honor to pick you up!" Gu Beichen glanced sideways at Jian Mo and sped up Jane Mo suddenly leaned forward and fell back on the seat because she didn''t prevent it... She stared at Gu Beichen and asked with gnashing teeth: "ah Chen, do you smell anything in the car?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, as if waiting for Jian Mo to continue. Jane Mo looked serious, but her lips pursed a forbearing smile, "sour... What a big sour taste... It''s the same as the vinegar jar!" Gu Beichen frowned at the moment, and the ink pupil became deep. "You mean I''m jealous?" "I didn''t say..." Jane Mo smiled and spread to the bottom of her eyes. Gu Beichen''s side eyes looked at the simple foam that had shaken his waist and legs with a smile, and his cold, carved face suddenly coagulated, and the lines were stiff together. Jian Mo saw his taut facial lines and smiled, "ah Chen, aren''t you happy? I haven''t seen you for many days. I''m very happy to see you now..." she raised her body slightly, regardless of Gu Beichen''s flattering kiss on his cheek while he was still driving. Gu Beichen''s stiff facial lines obviously eased for a few minutes, but he still stretched deliberately and snorted coldly, "I''ll help you recognize the reality earlier..." he gave a slight meal, and his low voice was filled with some indifference, "Jane Mo, you''ve always been smart." Jane Mo''s heart sank. She didn''t know whether it was to hide her inner panic. She leaned on Gu Beichen''s shoulder, "I''m not a person who will miss the past..." Otherwise, she would not be able to throw herself into his arms after losing her body. I won''t obviously reject sex because of that night, but I will still try to please him in order to repay him She didn''t care what purpose he married her for. She just knew that this man came to her like a God in her most difficult time. In fact, as a husband, in addition to his scandal, Gu Beichen is really good to her. The last time I waited for the door, there was scald cream. Neither she nor he mentioned it, but... She was really moved. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Jian Mo''s words clearly showed that he should be comfortable, but... Why did he feel a little uneasy when he said he wouldn''t miss it? Not nostalgic, doesn''t that mean that one day when she is separated from him, she will immediately throw herself into the arms of others and not nostalgic for him?! Thinking of this, Gu Beichen''s mood is even worse Chapter 60 Since Chu Zixiao came back, he made an appointment to have dinner together, but he didn''t have this opportunity until he came back for a month At the dinner table, Gu Ci and Chu tianqin, as always, Gu Beichen got used to his cold face. Except when he was in bed, Jian Mo saw his face like a bird. At other times, it was such a face that seemed to have been hit with Botox. Chu Zixiao was a little silent on the whole dinner table... As a famous debater, he didn''t talk much except in court. Of course, except when I was with Jane Mo at school. When Jian Mo went to school, she was a cold and arrogant person. Chu Zixiao teased her most of the time... But now the atmosphere is wrong. It seems that the dinner table is not only home, but also work. Gu family has deep-rooted influence in Los Angeles, especially in the city, no one can shake the Emperor Group... Although Chu group is also a large company, it still depends on the emperor in many projects. It''s a pity that Gu Beichen refused to recognize his relatives and made a decisive decision in the mall... He never showed mercy. In a few words, Chu tianqin''s wishful thinking was prevaricated by Gu Beichen again "Are you free this evening?" Chu Zixiao interrupted, and his eyes fell on Gu Beichen, "go and have a drink?" "OK." Gu Beichen took advantage of the situation and looked at Jian Mo, who was always at ease to eat, "go together in the evening?" "No, I have to go to work tomorrow..." Jane Mo said naturally, but she didn''t find a little coquettish in her voice. Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "sit back later, huh?" Jian Mo sighed and could only compromise Her performance was as usual, but everything fell into Chu Zixiao''s eyes, which was a little dazzling... He couldn''t understand the composition of the acting of the two people opposite. It was still like this on weekdays, but he knew Jian mo. The unconscious coquetry made him resist to think about the real reason After dinner, Gu CI called Gu Beichen to one side to talk, and Jian Mo went to the living room to eat fruit and wait. "Can''t that project really help your brother-in-law?" Gu Ci''s voice was a little dignified, "Beichen, you know, if Chu can''t win this project this time, the stock ups and downs will be very serious..." Gu Beichen stood there with his hands copying his pockets. The eagle''s eyes fell deep in the distance. There was no emotion on his cold, carved face and said, "business is business. If the emperor depends on nepotism, I''m afraid he can''t come to today." Gu CI frowned. "The fourth and fifth phases of Yujing lake are now ending. If things are not solved, the hole can''t be filled... Beichen, you should know what will happen." Gu Beichen frowned at Gu CI in an instant. His eyes looked at Gu CI deeply, and his voice overflowed with a trace of cold: "elder sister, are you threatening me?" "Beichen, you know it''s not..." Gu CI frowned and couldn''t see the actual age on his well maintained face. "But if the foundation of phase VI of Yujing lake can''t be laid, the media will keep staring... Sooner or later, things will still make mistakes." Gu Beichen converged his eyes and looked into the distance. A cold smile spilled over his thin lips. "Since the elder sister said something with this thing... Good!" Seeing Gu Beichen''s answer, Gu Ci''s eyes overflowed with joy, but he was stunned by what he said in an instant. "Exchange your 5% shares of the emperor of God..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and the ink pupil overflowed with light. "Not only this project, the emperor will bear the early start-up capital of phase VI of Yujing lake!" This is a win-win situation, but Gu CI also knows... He wants to gradually close the emperor''s shares. "What Dad hasn''t done for so many years, Beichen, are you going to fulfill grandpa''s wish?" Gu Ci''s voice slightly trembled and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen turned around and looked at Gu Ci, "elder sister, you should understand that I have to do this!" After a slight pause, he continued, "I''ll ask Susan to draw up the equity transfer agreement. If the elder sister wants to understand, I''ll wait for you in the emperor." After that, he turned back to the villa, picked up Jian Mo, and played blues with Chu Zixiao. From beginning to end, there was no trace of sympathy on his indifferent face Jane Mo is the first time to come to blues. This is a private club. It is mostly a place for Los Angeles celebrities to hide wine here... It''s convenient to come and have a drink and get together. She stood in Gu Beichen''s private wine cellar and looked at the dazzling array of wines placed in a space of 200 square meters. The corners of her mouth twitched This is called... Money is capricious! Jane Mo took it all at once, well... The 1976 treasure Latour. Before he could appreciate this wine worth more than 300000, his hand suddenly emptied, and then another wine fell... Jian Mo looked at the light yellow wine in his hand and looked at Gu Beichen. "Aren''t you going to work tomorrow? Just drink champagne." Gu Beichen said and directly put the bottle of Latour back to the wine rack. "It''s as if it''s for my good..." Jane Mo glanced at the bottle of wine greedily and whispered, "stingy." Gu Beichen leaned on the wine rack, his thin lips shallow Yang, "stingy?" "Hum!" Jane Mo looked at the sparkling wine in her hand and snorted. In that way, let alone how cute it was. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s sight and suddenly became deep and bottomless. When Jian Mo felt that the atmosphere seemed hot, he had been kissed on the wine cabinet Jane Mo was still holding champagne in her hand, and missed kisses were everywhere, but her enthusiasm was ignited in an instant... She took the wine around Gu Beichen''s neck and began to respond to her. In response to Jian Mo, Gu Beichen involuntarily deepened the kiss... Her sweet lips and tongues can always make his body respond the fastest. Chu Zixiao came over with a bottle of wine just selected in his hand. Looking at the two people who kissed completely selflessly, the position of his heart suddenly hurt... A touch of self mockery and grief slipped across the corners of his mouth. He should have turned around, but at that moment, like a fool, he watched his little uncle whom he admired most from childhood kiss with the only woman who moved his heart in his life. "Hmm..." Jian Mo was smothered by Gu Beichen and wanted to push him away. Gu Beichen''s eyes dimmed, then slipped a smile, but didn''t let go of Jian mo... Until Chu Zixiao turned and went to the aisle on the other side, he slowly let go of Jian Mo who was about to suffocate. Jane Mo gasped. Her face was flushed because of lack of oxygen. She was particularly charming under the light "Oh, I regret it." Jian Mo''s breath was not stable yet. She just looked up at Gu Beichen suspiciously. She didn''t know what he regretted. "You shouldn''t allow Zixiao to come over, you should go home directly..." Gu Beichen came forward quietly, and his thin lips put an ambiguous smile on Jian Mo''s ear, slowly overflowing the second half of the sentence, "... Put you in the right place!" Chapter 61 Because the lips are very close to the ears, as Gu Beichen spoke, thin lips kept teasing the skin on Jian Mo''s ears, and the hot air was sprinkled. Coupled with his flirting words... Suddenly, her face "Teng" became more red. "Can''t the women outside feed you?" Jane Mo''s breathing innocence fanned her eyes. Gu Beichen''s thin lips shallow raised an evil radian, and nodded seriously. "It''s one thing whether to feed or not, mainly..." his eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply, and his voice was also low for a few minutes, "... There are no more tricks than you." Jian Mo''s face turned more red in an instant. They used to get along like this in private on weekdays, but now in the wine cellar, it''s mainly... Chu Zixiao is still there! Feeling Jian Mo''s shame, Gu Beichen didn''t continue to tease her. He got up and took her hand and went out together. A bottle of red wine, a bottle of Champagne... Two top-notch men tasted red wine gracefully and nobly, while Jian Mo drank champagne with basically no wine precision. It''s also inappropriate to think about it. Gu Beichen estimated that she was "pathetic", took a cup and poured some for her, "try it?!" "No, I have to go to work tomorrow. I''d better drink less..." Jane Mo turned her face and even snorted. Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "well, I''ll see if you consciously... Deliberately test." With that, he took back the cup he handed him, and then put it to his lips and drank it himself. Jane Mo immediately hates her teeth itching. It''s not that she is greedy for wine, but the best red wine is rare. Naturally, she also yearns... She stares at Gu Beichen fiercely, and she continues to drink champagne in her arms. Chu Zixiao sat opposite and looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. Finally, more sour Chu overflowed from the bottom of his eyes... Beichen let him see clearly that even if he divorced Mo Mo, he wouldn''t have a chance? He knows Mo Mo... If she wasn''t with someone she knows very well, she wouldn''t show these little coquettishes at all. No matter what she got married for at the beginning, has she been attracted to Beichen now? Secretly mocking himself, Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen''s elegant and evil charm like Satan... How many women don''t like such a man?! Jane Mo didn''t know what Chu Zixiao was thinking. Even, she didn''t feel embarrassed when the three chatted. Why, she didn''t think... Or she forgot to think at all. "Are you going to come to the imperial lawyers?" Gu Beichen lazily overlapped his slender legs, grabbed the hand of the red wine cup and put it on his legs at will, with his eyes indifferent. "I mainly focus on criminal defense, and commercial defense is not my category." Chu Zixiao shook his head and said. Gu Beichen smiled. "Sooner or later, he will pick up Chu''s family and plan to stay in the legal world all his life?" Chu Zixiao was silent and looked at Gu Beichen with deep eyes. "It''s not a day or two for you to stare at Chu... Pick it up? How to pick it up?" Gu Beichen smiled, but that smile was dangerous. Jian Mo glanced at Gu Beichen and didn''t expect that his mind would hit his family... But on second thought, how many mergers and acquisitions have he completed, large and small, since he took over emperor group? There are many nepotism in it... She felt that there was nothing wrong with it. Jian Mo is not interested in the problems discussed by Chu Zixiao and Gu Beichen. He is a little bored. He is so sleepy that he doesn''t know when he fell asleep. When I woke up, I was already in Gu Beichen''s arms "Ah Chen..." the soft voice of hem overflowed the lips of Jian Mo, showing a coquettish and angry flattery. Chu Zixiao''s heart was suddenly stung. In the bleary haze, her subconscious voice was used to it, which made him feel like something was blocked in his heart. "I''ll talk about the rest later," Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and raised his eyes when he said, "but... Zixiao, you can weigh some things yourself. If there''s another time, don''t blame me for not reading love." Chu Zixiao was silent, just looking at Jian Mo in a dull mood. Jian Mo was completely awakened by Gu Beichen''s cold words, and then suddenly she was still in the Blues Gu Beichen glanced lightly at Jian Mo, who was suddenly uncomfortable. Then he turned around and hugged her and left the blues. On the way back, Jane Mo was silent... She didn''t know when she fell asleep or what the two people finally talked about, but Gu Beichen''s mood behind him was obviously angry. Silence all the way filled the narrow carriage with dignity until the car stopped at lanzeyuan and they got off the car Just after entering the room, Jane Mo was kissed by Gu Beichen against the wall. It was like going to continue the kiss in the wine cellar, and it was like venting something. Jian Mo was puzzled by Gu Beichen''s mood, but considering that they had not been together for several days, they responded to him enthusiastically "Back... Back to the bedroom..." Jian Mo gasped for an opportunity and spoke hard. The voice of "tearing" came next. After Jian Mo secretly mourned for the clothes she had only worn once, she had been pressed on the sofa by Gu Beichen. The sofa is very wide, but it can''t be used for Gu Beichen''s tall body Jane Mo was not very comfortable with being so narrow. She pushed Gu Beichen away slightly and said, "go, go to bed..." Finally, Gu Beichen didn''t go to bed, but directly put Jian Mo on the floor... According to his words, the place is spacious enough to roll as much as he wants... No posture is limited. The next day, when the lazy sunshine in early autumn was reflected in the bedroom through the gap of the curtain, Jian Mo woke up in Gu Beichen''s arms. "Ah Chen, good morning..." Gu Beichen raised his thin lips and pecked at Jian Mo''s lips, "morning!" "It''s nice to wake up and see you!" Jane Mo said something soft and greasy. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly deep, and there was a smile overflow at the bottom of his eyes. "His mouth is so sweet, it seems that he didn''t meet you last night..." "No, people''s bodies can''t bear your ability." Jane Mo said quickly. She couldn''t understand why no woman could completely satisfy Gu Beichen with the constant gossip outside? Every time he comes back, she will be tossed into a coma. Gu Beichen just joked with Jane Mo, and didn''t really want to have another morning exercise with her. He got up and went to the bathroom to wash. When he came out, he asked, "your car hasn''t been repaired yet?" "Let''s go and open it today..." Jane Mo generously opened the quilt and walked to the bathroom without any care about wearing anything. Gu Beichen''s eyes are bright and deep. Jian Mo''s figure is the kind of perfect one. There are places where there should be meat, and there is no more fat... Plus his beautiful face, he will definitely live up to the title of the school flower of Luoyang University in that year. "Take you to the subway station later?" When Jane looked back, she said, "you''re not afraid of falling into the bathroom, and then she flashed into the bathroom like a wolf......". Chapter 62 Jane Mo took a taxi directly to the garage after work, and the cost exceeded five figures when she checked out! "Why is it so high?" Jane Mo asked in amazement. The man in the garage turned his eyes helplessly, "Miss, the front face of your car is concave, and the engine is good without major events..." Jane Mo widened her eyes. "Isn''t it not serious?" "Didn''t you drive the car?" The repairman looked at Jian Mo suspiciously, "to that extent, the other party''s car must have hit hard..." Jane Mo''s heart trembled because of the repairman''s words, not because of the money, but because it was possible that the other party might hit him badly. She took out her card to settle the repair fee and drove away... However, as soon as she got out of the repair shop, she stopped, grabbed the steering wheel and turned a little white. After taking the bag and turning out the mobile phone, Jian Mo hurriedly called Su Junli... He said it wasn''t serious that day. The phone rang and no one answered. At the moment of automatic hanging up, Su Jun picked it up. "Foam?" Jian Mo''s breath was slightly dignified, "Jun Li, I just drove the car out of the garage..." "Oh?" Su Jun said softly, "is there nothing serious?" Jian Mo frowned and listened to Su Junli''s voice. It was obvious that he didn''t know that the car hit seriously. "Junli was hit by my car that night... Is it really all right?" Su Junli chuckled, "what can I do?" Jane Mo was silent and just said, "the people in the garage said that the other party''s car was badly hit..." "Do you believe them?" Su Junli''s voice was soft and comfortable from beginning to end, reassuring, "foam, whether light or heavy, as long as people are fine. Besides, they don''t say it''s more serious. How can they pit your car repair fee?" Jane Mo breathed out secretly, and thought it was the same. In fact, she''s calling to ask if someone is okay... As long as they''re okay, it''s okay. Su Jun hung up the phone, turned and looked at the man sitting not far away, then walked forward, "Mr. Liang, I can give you the money this time, but how can you guarantee that there will be no next time?" "That''s hard to say, and I can''t guarantee..." Liang Zi snorted coldly. "Mr. Su, you know, my friend was hit by that woman, and the doctor said it''s hard to say about the sequelae." Su Jun Li frowned slightly, and his warm face showed indifference. He never liked greedy people, "so... Are you going to turn this into a bottomless hole?" "I don''t like Mr. Su," said Liang Zichao with a disgusting smile. "You are a celebrity in Los Angeles. How dare we small people make things big?" His voice was full of sarcasm, "but my friend was hit in the end. If Mr. Su doesn''t care, I have to go to Xiangyu to find Miss Jane." Su Jun left his eyes and suddenly became gloomy. It''s no surprise that Liang Zichao knew where Jian Mo and she worked... He came here prepared today. "If you can''t guarantee that this is the last time, I won''t give you a penny." He was threatened, which encouraged his arrogance and brought endless trouble. Liang Zichao turned his eyes. "OK... Buy it now, 300000! No..." he quickly changed his words, "500000! Give my friend 500000, and it''s over..." "Fifty thousand!" Su Junli said coldly. As soon as Liang Zichao heard this, he immediately widened his eyes, "50000? Impossible!" Su Jun sneered at Leng and didn''t say anything. He got up and wanted to leave "Wait!" Liang Zichao hurriedly shouted Su Junli. Su Junli stopped, turned to look at Liang Zichao and said, "if you agree, I''ll write you a check... If you disagree, whatever you do, I''ll accompany you. But don''t blame me for not reminding you... If the Su family really wants to shut up, there are ways." Liang Zichao saw that Su Junli was real and was afraid that 50000 would be gone. Although he was not satisfied, he could only compromise Su Junli didn''t write him a check right now, but said coldly, "I''ll be here tomorrow morning and I''ll give you the money. However, just in case, I''ll bring you an agreement to sign..." Liang Zichao stood up, "what agreement?" Su Junli smiled, but his smile was cold and frozen in the corners of his mouth. "Of course, you don''t have any chance to threaten the agreement between me and her..." coldly put down the words, and he turned and left the tea restaurant. "Shit, what!" After Su Jun left, Liang Zichao scolded bitterly, "a broken agreement wants to send me? Dream!" He kicked the chair, turned and went into an elegant box on the side. "Ah Heng, it''s really the same as you expected..." Liang Zichao cracked with a smile. "It seems that we''ll spend money to find the right owner in the future." Jian Heng played with his mobile phone and said with a bad smile at the corners of his mouth: "I didn''t expect my sister to be very attractive..." he said. He clicked on the photo of Gu Beichen holding Jian Mo for medical treatment before opening a chapter. Others may not know who Gu Beichen is holding in his hand, but it''s his sister. How can he not recognize it? His sister is still very powerful now. She not only has a good relationship with Su Junli, but also has hooked up with Gu Beichen''s special help. She can''t tell if she has an affair with Gu Beichen. "Hey, what are you thinking?" Liang Zichao fell in love with Jian Heng, "go to Yuncheng casino to play first when you get the money tomorrow?" "Less than..." "No, my hands are itchy." Liang Zichao couldn''t hear what Jian Heng said and rubbed his hands. Jane stringer stared at him, "it''s only 50000, not enough for a few back and forth... Get more together." "Alas, Su Junli is not a good stubble. It is estimated that he can''t cheat so much at one time." Jian Chang''s sight became deeper. "If we don''t look for Su Junli... We need to find a richer owner." As he spoke, he laughed deeply. "Wait, you have to get hundreds of thousands of flowers first." The next day, the weather in Los Angeles was a little cloudy and the sun was not so warm. Xiao Jing frowned slightly at the document bag sent to him by the express, turned it over several times and didn''t open it. Susan just made coffee. Seeing that Xiao Jing had been staring at the express documents, she put a cup of coffee in front of him. "What?" Xiao Jing shook his head, "no sender." With that, he tore open the file bag and took out the contents... Several photos. Xiao Jing was more and more confused. He picked up the photos and looked at them. They were all from the scene of the car accident Suddenly, he looked at a few photos again... Even if he didn''t look closely, but when he looked closely, the car that caused the accident turned out to be Jian Mo''s. "What''s the matter?" Susan looked at Xiao Jing''s face and said half jokingly, "can''t it be a threat?" Xiao Jing didn''t answer, but began to look through the document bag again. There was a piece of paper in it... It was a letter, not handwritten, but printed. The intention is obvious, which means that Jane Mo hit him and asked for money, or sue her! Xiao Jing packed the photos back into the file bag, got up and went to Gu Beichen''s office... Don''t say how threatened it was. He felt it necessary to report to Chen Shao about the other party''s misunderstanding of himself as Miss Jane''s boyfriend. He doesn''t want to be deducted another 30% of the year-end bonus by the boss who is careful and refuses to admit something! When Xiao Jing entered the office, Gu Beichen was approving documents. He came forward and put the information bag on the desk. His figure said slightly: "Chen Shao, Miss Jane has been threatened..." Chapter 63 Gu Beichen looked at those photos, and the eagle''s eyes gradually became deep and bottomless... Finally, he looked at the printed letter and couldn''t help sneering. "Chen Shao, do you need to deal with it?" Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen''s face and asked carefully. "About!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips faintly overflow a word, which makes people unable to hear his mood at the moment. Xiao Jing is the person who has been with Gu Beichen for a long time. One word, he already knows what he wants to do, "OK. I''ll do it now..." then, he has turned and left the office with the printed paper with contact information. At night, the underground heavy metal bar still heard the harsh roar of music in the silent night, and the red men and green women on the dance floor burned themselves with the music. Here, there is no day-to-day trouble, only crazy vent! Devil \''s kiss, a notorious dark place in Los Angeles. While there are unknown transactions here, it has always been able to stand in an international metropolis such as Los Angeles. It is conceivable that there is a strong hardness in the background. Gu Beichen sat in a box, his slender legs overlapping at will, and his hand on his legs was holding an unlit cigarette Under the dim light, he was like a devil hidden in the dark night, waiting for his prey to be swallowed up at any time. "Dang... Da... Dang... Da..." The sound of the steel lighter opening and closing was particularly treacherous in the empty box. The man on the opposite sofa felt a treacherous and violent sense of oppression, which almost made him forget his heartbeat. "How much do you want?" Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips, and there was no emotion in his voice. Liang Zichao swallowed it secretly. Since he came in, he didn''t see who was sitting opposite. However, his arrogance made him a little shorter. "Five... Five hundred thousand..." Liang Zichao tried to calm his voice. Gu Beichen slightly hooked up the corner of his lips, and his eyes were slightly drooping, "not much..." the two light words showed a smile that he couldn''t bear to look directly at. Liang Zichao was shocked and hurriedly said, "I mean, 500000 a month..." Xiao Jing stood aside and smiled. Chen Shao hates greedy people most... If it''s only 500000, maybe it''s really given. That''s not enough money to buy Miss Jane a tire for the next car. "500000 a month for me... It''s just a meal." Gu Beichen raised his hand, put the smoke in his mouth and lit it immediately. The faint light of the fire made Liang Zichao see Gu Beichen for a moment. It was just a glance. He felt that the man''s eyes were cold and deep. They didn''t look like the world, just like those coming out of hell, which made people cool in an instant. "Well, what do you mean..." although Liang Zichao was afraid, he couldn''t resist the greed at the bottom of his heart. Gu Beichen''s thin lips were filled with a smile, which showed the danger of sneering, "you said... How much is the life of you and the one behind you worth?" Liang Zichao didn''t react for a moment, but stared at the virtual shadow opposite. Gu Beichen leaned over slightly, motioned for Liang Zichao to stretch out his hand, and then twisted out the cigarette butt in his hand "Ah" screamed. Liang Zi was so hot that he wanted to retract his hand. However, Xiao Jing quickly pressed his wrist. Gu Beichen slowly got up and lay back on the sofa. Looking at Liang Zichao''s twisted face hurt by being scalded, he said coldly, "it only takes 100000 to buy your life!" Liang Zichao was shocked and subconsciously wanted to withdraw his hand. Xiao Jing seems a little thin, but he has great strength... He suddenly grabbed the area and Liang Zichao has been pressed on the table. How can the people trained by the Dragon owl be so "approachable" on the surface? Gu Beichen looked at the scene indifferently, and his voice overflowed his thin lips coldly. "Never, no one can threaten me, okay?" "Ah -" Liang Zichao cried out in pain, "you, what do you want to do?" Gu Beichen lit a cigarette again, took a sip, and the smoke spit out his thin lips. "If you want to talk, let your friends come and talk to me!" "Just give you ten minutes! If he doesn''t come... I can''t guarantee what I will do." At the right time, Xiao Jing let Liang Zichao go and looked at him indifferently. Liang Zichao shuddered. "My friend is still... Still... Still in hospital..." he boldly said what Jian Heng taught him, "I just want to get the money to pay the medical expenses." "Oh?" Gu Beichen chuckled, "well... How about you go in with your friend?" At the same time, Xiao Jing grabbed Liang Zichao''s hair and knocked to the front tea table... Only to hear a loud bang, and the glass tea table broke. "Liang Zi suddenly heard something more painful. Gu Beichen watched Liang Zichao roll on the ground indifferently, and his body curled up in pain. He looked at Xiao Jing with some disgust, "tut Tut, it''s too heavy." Xiao Jing turned his eyes secretly, and in his heart, he feigned Gu Beichen''s bloodthirsty and indifferent master, and slowly said, "seeing blood, Chen Shao... Why don''t you use 30% of the year-end bonus to calm me down?" Gu Beichen shook his head. "It''s only a few thousand yuan for his medical expenses. Your 30% year-end bonus can exceed one million. It''s inappropriate." "...." Xiao Jing was speechless. Chen Shao, is it really good for you to be so stingy? Gu Beichen put down his overlapping legs, and the burning cigarette butt was flicked by him. It just fell on the back of Liang Zichao''s hand covering his forehead. When he heard a dull sound, he said indifferently: "I won''t give you any money... If you want to threaten Jian Mo, just keep going." Then he lifted his indifferent step and wanted to leave Gu Beichen stopped when he crossed Liang Zichao curled up on the ground, slightly tilted his head, lowered his eyes, looked down at him and said, "some people are not something you can touch... If you are not afraid of death, you can challenge my bottom line." After all, he didn''t stay for more than a minute and left, just like there was some garbage in the box that he disliked Xiao Jing left to deal with the follow-up. Chen Shao came forward in person. You can imagine how angry this threat made him... This person can''t find anyone to threaten. Can you find Mrs. Gu? It''s death! "Oh, tell me, you''re short of money. Why do you have to offend some people you can''t offend?" Xiao Jing''s tone was somewhat helpless. "I can''t go back to rest after you. I''m also very stuffed!" Gu Beichen drove all the way to lanzeyuan. Los Angeles at night is like a magic city in a gorgeous coat. When you fall, you are always driven by interests. When she opened the door and entered the house, Jane Mo curled up on the sofa and fell asleep. The TV was still on Xu is a little noisy, or Jian Mo sleeps relatively shallow. She opens her bleary eyes and looks at Gu Beichen. In her voice, she mumbles, "ah Chen, you''re back..." At that moment, Gu Beichen felt a kind of warmth in his heart... It was wonderful to have someone waiting for you when you entered the house. Chapter 64 Jian Mo got up, greeted Gu Beichen and hooked his neck. His cheek was close to his strong chest. He was particularly bored... It was like a wronged child seeking the comfort of the closest person. "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen felt something wrong with Jian Mo and asked softly. Jane Mo shook her head in his arms and said in a stuffy voice, "it''s all right, just miss you..." she kept close to him and listened to his strong heartbeat. That sense of security calmed her uneasy mood all night. Gu Beichen subconsciously circled Jian Mo''s body, and his thin lips raised a warm radian. "Generally, when you think of me, you have little thoughts... Say, what happened?" "Nothing." Jane Mo shook her head in Gu Beichen''s arms, and her voice became more and more stuffy. Driving home in the afternoon, although Su Junli said that there was nothing wrong with the car accident that day, she was particularly upset at the thought of what the people in the garage said. She didn''t care before. She didn''t see the crashed car when she woke up. Even... The owner of the crashed car didn''t know who it was. Before, she didn''t think about it and didn''t think there would be any major event, but now the more she thinks about it, the more she feels flustered... One night, she was in no mood and kept adjusting the TV station on the sofa, but she didn''t see anything. At that moment, she had never had hope. Gu Beichen was around. As if she could feel at ease if he was around. He didn''t go upstairs, so he waited foolishly... Thinking that he might not say and would come back to lanzeyuan. The moment she was awakened by the sound of opening the door, Jane Mo was more than the position of her heart in a moment of unprecedented joy. She almost forgot her reaction. "Has the car been repaired?" Gu Beichen asked with his eyes slightly deep. Jane nodded, "I don''t want to drive this car..." thinking that it might be a big accident that night, she resisted the car. "Hmm..." Gu Beichen said faintly, with some unknown doting. "I''ll have someone send another one tomorrow." "Don''t..." Jane Mo raised her eyes, fanned her long eyelashes and said, "now I''m wearing luxury goods all over. I''ve been gossip. I''ll drive a luxury car back. I don''t know what news will appear." Gu Beichen rubbed his belly around the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth, with an obsidian like ink pupil. "You are Mrs. Gu. What are you afraid to say?" Jane Mo put her arms around Gu Beichen''s neck and kissed him with a beautiful smile, "but others don''t know, I''d better keep a low profile. Otherwise, your gossip girlfriend will be jealous and come to trouble me later." Gu Beichen smiled, "I think you''re afraid of exposure..." as he said, he slipped through the hot evil spirit in the depths of his ink pupil, picked up Jane Mo and walked upstairs to the bedroom. "You haven''t taken a bath yet..." when Gu Beichen threw Jian Mo on the bed, she said coyly. Gu Beichen pressed down, "wash after finishing... Let''s wash together!" He added that his thin lips had fallen on Jian Mo''s eyebrows. Jane Mo was a little itchy by him. "Ah Chen, I like you..." she said with some disgust. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, his arms supported Jane Mo, his sides looked up slightly, and his eyes looked at her deeply, "today''s mouth is so sweet, it seems that you can''t serve you well..." When the words fell, Gu Beichen immediately leaned down, grabbed Jane Mo''s mouth and kissed her fiercely ¡­¡­ Jian Heng looked at Liang Zichao, whose head was wrapped like zongzi, and his face was a little cold. After listening to his complaint, his vision was a little deeper and showed a strange cold. "Shit, is this what you call getting more money?" Liang Zi was more angry than he thought, because his speech was too big and involved the wound on his forehead. He grinned with pain. "Gu Beichen doesn''t do this. I still think it''s possible that he has nothing to do with Jian mo..." Jian Leng hissed, "but he did. I think he has a good relationship with my sister." "So what?" Liang Zichao bared his teeth and roared, "the good result is that we have been counter threatened." The PigHead inclined to look at Liang Zichao, and his head was unable to make complaints about his pig head. "Hum, we had the video of the car accident that night. Those pictures are just backup. If he wants to see Jane''s lawsuit, I don''t mind." With a slight pause, "besides Gu Beichen, isn''t there Su Jun left?" Liang Zichao gently held his forehead and endured the pain. Looking at Jian Chang, he smiled. "Jian Chang, you''re really cruel... Talk about your sister." After a slight meal, his eyes overflowed with obscene light, "in other words, your sister looks really good. Why don''t you turn back and let me..." "Don''t even think about it!" Jian Heng interrupted Liang Zichao''s thought, "women... As long as you have money, when don''t you have it? If you really move Jian Mo, you won''t get money back." Liang Zichao also felt that it was true when Jian Heng said this. Although he still had ideas about his face and figure, he didn''t think deeply. "What''s next?" Jian Heng called out his mobile phone and looked at the road video clip where he got it from the little policewoman. He smiled at the corners of his mouth, "of course, he made money from the gold owner..." he said. He plugged his mobile phone into the computer, exported the video and saved it in the file. Today, Liang Zichao was asked to mail those photos to Xiao Jing. The purpose was not him, but Gu Beichen... Sure enough, Gu Beichen arrived in the evening. If Jian Mo and Gu Beichen have an affair, it''s exciting to think about it She was sent to a strange man''s room calculated by her own brother two years ago. After lingering, she lost her life for the first time. At the moment, Jane Mo, who is taking a mandarin duck bath with Gu Beichen and entangled in such a large Jacuzzi, never thought that two years later, her brother would start calculating her again. "I, I can''t..." Jian Mo reached the peak several times. She couldn''t cope with Gu Beichen''s tireless attack and hurried to beg for mercy. Gu Beichen gnawed at Jian Mo''s smooth shoulder blade with his teeth, "dare you say I can''t?" Jane felt a pain and was about to cry, "I was wrong..." "Hmm? That''s it?" Gu Beichen was light, and his pretty eyebrows and eyes slightly picked an evil radian. Jian Mo scolded Gu Beichen for being a "bird" and kissed him with a charming smile. She said, "my husband is beautiful and has great work... He is the best man!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s flattering appearance, and his thin lips shallow raised an arc like nothing... He found that he was more and more greedy for the taste of this little woman. In fact, it''s good for her to be his wife. At night, Gu Beichen hugged Jian mo. she was afraid that she was tired, and soon fell asleep against his chest. Just as the night was quiet as water, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone shook on the bedside table... He first picked up the mobile phone, then looked at the person in his arms, saw her frown slightly and then went to sleep, and a spoiled smile was slightly put on the corner of his mouth. Gu Beichen gently twitched his arm and got out of bed. He took his mobile phone and picked it up on the terrace. "How''s it going?" Chapter 65 "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing''s respectful voice came over the phone, "all have been handled... Long Shao said that as long as the other party sends an email, he will be able to track the IP address." Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep, as if they were dyed with ink night halo, showing the danger of darkness, "what I want is foolproof." Xiao Jing could feel Gu Beichen''s anger even across the phone. He grinned and said, "we must be able to destroy all the things in the car accident that night." "Yes." After Gu Beichen heard the guarantee, the frozen face line eased slightly, "wait, send someone to deal with the car. In addition, refit the car overnight and send it over." Xiao Jing wants to cry. He wants to go home and sleep... Unfortunately, he doesn''t dare! "Chen Shao, I''ll do it now..." Alas, who calls him a worker?! The boss helps the landlady deal with the aftermath. He should be diligent as an errand runner. The sun still rises in Los Angeles... The morning light cuts through the East, and when the whole city sets a lazy light, a new day comes as scheduled. Jane Mo looked at the car in the yard. It was obviously her own "broken car", but she didn''t know why. She always felt something was wrong. For example, the steel ring of this tire doesn''t seem to be the same as before... Another example, the glass seems to have been treated, but it seems to be the same as before. "Why, waiting for me to see you off?" Gu Beichen came out in an appropriately tailored dark blue suit. Eagle eyes looked at Jian Mo standing in front of her car in a daze. Jian Mo frowned and looked innocently at Gu Beichen. "I don''t know why, I always think my car is wrong." "Huh?" Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face had no emotion. Jane Mo pointed to the steel ring of the car tire. "I remember it used to be in the shape of Plum Blossom... How did it become a trident like the Mercedes Benz logo?" Gu Beichen glanced coldly, then looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight with a touch of contempt, "your own car asked me? Who should I ask?" After putting down his words, he had an obvious contempt for "people are going to be mentally retarded and can''t be smart". Then, in the state of Jian Mo''s teeth and claws, he turned and got on his Spyker Start, beautiful tail flick... And leave. Zhenzhener waved his hand and didn''t take away a cloud. "The proud and indifferent man is terrible!" Jane Mo glanced, "don''t be a bird when you have the ability to be in bed..." she muttered, opened the door and got on the car. If there was something wrong with the tire at that time, then... Jane Mo felt even more strange when sitting in the driver''s seat, but she couldn''t tell what such a strange thing was. Start the car, and the low sound of "Wuwu" shows the arrogant roar... Jane Mo opened her mouth slightly. Why does she think her "broken car" suddenly has the roar of a sports car?! Jane Mo drove all the way to the company in doubt. Whether it was starting or stopping, it seemed to be very smooth... More smooth than when she drove yesterday. Jian Mo doesn''t understand the car, and can only recognize the brands of several models at most... It''s also due to Gu Beichen''s changing the car every three days. Clearly felt something wrong with the car, but she just didn''t know what was wrong... Finally, she simply didn''t think about it. Xiao Jing looked at the data on the computer with two panda eyes. He didn''t know how many cups of coffee he had in the morning "Did you become a thief last night?" Susan couldn''t help asking Xiao Jing when she looked like she was dying. Xiao Jing looked at Susan with a long sigh... More than being a thief? It''s crazy. In order to destroy the accident scene of Jian Mo that night, he not only had to restore the scene to exchange fake for real, but also stared at refitting the car... He forcibly turned a broken car of 100000 into a luxury car worth millions and tens of millions. This car has also become the most low-key luxury luxury car in history... Dressed in modern leather, it is completely the world''s top configuration! Braking alone costs a lot of money... You can definitely brake at the first time! Chen Shao is really trying hard for Jian mo... I just don''t know if Chen Shao feels that he is more and more different from Jian Mo recently. Sure enough, men, like women, can''t be too comfortable... If an opponent appears, it can stimulate some subconscious possessiveness. With the sound of "drop", Xiao Jing was shocked immediately and hurriedly ordered the developed email... Looking at the email, his original fatigue was swept away, and even the light of excitement overflowed from the bottom of his eyes. Susan knew as soon as she saw him that he must have done nothing good Xiao Jing didn''t care when Susan went to the secretary room, but his fingers quickly separated from the upper reaches of the keyboard. After a while, the people on the other side of the Dragon owl fed back the IP path. Xiao Jing called the phone, and long Xiao answered it himself. "How about long Shao?" The Dragon owl slightly hooked the corners of his lips, and his cold thin lips were cold and bloodthirsty. "Whether it''s a computer or any electronic device that will be connected to the computer, it will be implanted into a Trojan horse." "Chen Shao is relieved now..." Xiao Jing immediately breathed a sigh of relief. The Dragon owl''s eyes were slightly deep and asked coldly, "Beichen, is this a heart for Jane Mo?" Xiao Jing shrugged. "Long Shao, I think you have to ask Chen Shao about this question... I don''t count." The Dragon owl''s eyes were light and deep. He didn''t say anything, but just hung up the phone. Naturally, he won''t ask about Beichen and Jian mo. no matter why they are together or whether they can come to the end in the future, others can''t participate. Jane Mo swept away the haze after picking up the car last night. Today, she is obviously relaxed... Doing things with half the effort is twice the result with half the effort. The news gossip in the company these two days is also because Su junbei''s solo concert has changed from Gu Beichen heat to Su Junli heat, and even a wave of "piano prince Su Junli can make people pregnant by playing the piano" has broken out in Los Angeles. "Sister Mo, how''s my ticket?" Looking for a neutral position in the evening, he pulled Jane Mo and asked. After picking up the car yesterday, Jian Mo forgot. Seeing Xiang night looking forward to it, she could only call Su Junli in front of her face Su Junli was waiting for him at the tea restaurant where he met Liang Zichao yesterday. He got a call from Jian Mo, but he still picked it up "Is... Busy?" Jane Mo''s voice was hesitant. "Not busy..." Su Junli smiled. His warm face was as comfortable as the sunrise outside. "What''s up?" He asked softly. Jian Mo looked at Xiang night and asked with his hands folded, turning his eyes helplessly, "well... I just want to ask, do you still have tickets for the concert?" Su Junli listened and smiled in his warm eyes, "do you want to listen?" Jane Mo sipped her lips. "I think... But I heard it''s hard to get a ticket." "That''s for others..." Su Junli''s voice softened a little, "will you leave a VIP seat for you?" "No, no, I''ll just take my seat..." Jane Mo said hurriedly. "In fact, it''s mainly that I may need more tickets." I''m sorry to say that. "How many do you need?" Su Jun evaded the important and asked. "Well... Three is OK. If it''s difficult, two can also..." "OK, I''ll leave you three." Su Jun answered. At the right moment, Liang Zichao came in with a duck tongue hat... Su Jun remained unchanged and said gently, "I have something to do at the moment. I''ll send you the ticket later, okay?" Chapter 66 Jane Mo hung up the phone as soon as she heard that Su Junli had something to do and didn''t continue chatting. Su Junli heard the "beep beep" hang up sound in his mobile phone. Just then he slowly put down his mobile phone and looked at Liang Zichao who had already sat down opposite. In some accidents, a little blood can be clearly seen under the brim of the hat where it is wrapped by gauze. The Su family has great influence in the north of Los Angeles. Although it is a cultural family, it doesn''t mean that the background of the Su family is really simple without any defects When he saw the injury on Liang Zichao''s forehead, he guessed whose masterpiece it was. Su Junli pushed a document bag forward, "sign it and I''ll give you a check." Liang Zichao didn''t move. He just put cold hiss on the corner of his mouth. Then he took out his mobile phone and called out the video clip and handed it to Su Junli. "Mr. Su, why don''t you take a look at this video first... Let''s talk about the price." Su Junli just glanced and knew it was a screenshot of the road at the scene of the accident that night. He snorted coldly, "have you heard of Chu Zixiao?" Liang Zichao frowned and wondered why Su Junli mentioned him. "What do you think is your chance of winning a lawsuit with Chu''s argument?" Su Junli''s voice was indifferent from beginning to end. Liang Zi opened his mouth and was stunned. "What do you mean?" "Literally!" Su Jun left his indifferent mouth, "whether it''s in court or settled in private... You''re not qualified to talk about conditions." His voice became colder and colder. He picked up his mobile phone and calmly deleted it in front of Liang Zichao. He even formatted the memory card directly. Liang Zichao didn''t care, but said with a sly smile: "Mr. Su, don''t you think there is no backup of this video?" Su Junli just smiles, very light and elegant... He is a master of psychology. At the moment, Liang Zichao has a chaotic state of mind. He can see it at a glance. "The last chance is for you, but it''s a pity..." Su Jun sneered from Leng, "... You gave up!" Then he took back the document bag, got up and went out. Liang Zichao was a little flustered. "Isn''t Mr. Su afraid that I''ll give the video to the police station?" His voice was threatening. "You should know that this video clearly recorded Miss Jane''s illegal collision with our car." Su Junli stopped and deliberately paused for a few seconds to force Liang Zichao''s psychology. Then he turned slightly and said coldly, "if... You have this video." He sneered and left without stopping. Early this morning, Xiao Jing called him and said that he knew it was him who sent Jian Mo to the hospital that night when he investigated the matter Referring to the threat, Xiao Jing called for the same purpose... Very simple, he just said that Gu Beichen would deal with it. Gu Beichen doesn''t know what he thinks, but he can see that he is very interested in this matter... At least, he took the lead in considering Jian Mo''s feelings. He kept his promise when he came to the appointment. He thought... As long as Liang Zichao was willing to accept the contents of the contract, he didn''t mind giving Gu Beichen a check of 50000 in order to settle the situation. Unfortunately, people''s greed is infinite! At the same time, Jian Heng found that there was something wrong with his mobile phone, and the previously stored video couldn''t be opened... He turned on the computer, but the video was also garbled, and then couldn''t be opened. At first, he didn''t think about anything, but this happened to several electronic terminals that stored videos... It''s strange if he hasn''t found anything yet. In his heart, Jian Heng hurried to find a professional IT staff, looked at the computer and found that he was hit by a Trojan horse... As long as he had used this IP address to surf the Internet, all electronic devices had been implanted. ¡°shit£¡¡± Jane was angry and scolded, "can''t you recover?" The IT staff shook his head, "the other party is a program master, should be a hacker..." he said, looking at Jian Heng suspiciously, "what kind of information should send such a powerful person?" Jane truss naturally didn''t give him what the final analysis was. After sending the people away, he hurriedly called Liang Zichao. After hearing that the video in his hand was deleted by Su Junli, he almost threw out his mobile phone. The top floor of emperor group. Xiao Jing knocked on Gu Beichen''s office after dealing with Jian Heng''s affairs. "Come in." Gu''s fingers moved slightly on the green keyboard. Xiao Jing pushed the door and came in. "Chen Shao, it''s all handled..." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but eagle eyes looked at the stock market trading chart... Stared at it for about a minute before pressing the Enter key. "Who is the man behind Liang Zichao?" Gu Beichen asked coldly. There was no expression on his cold, carved face. "Jane truss!" Xiao Jing twisted his eyebrows when spitting out the name, "Miss Jane''s brother." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes suddenly became sharp. Mo Tong looked at Xiao Jing deeply and saw that his hair was straight in his heart "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing hesitated to say, "that..." he seemed a little embarrassed. Gu Beichen''s eyes flashed fiercely over Xiao Jing, "wait for me, please say it!" Xiao Jing shook his head as soon as he heard it... Are you kidding? He doesn''t think he''s living too long. "Chen Shao, Jian Heng may have been the real leaker of the Yujing Lake design two years ago..." Xiao Jing said. "It hasn''t been thoroughly investigated, but today, when tracking down the people behind Liang Zichao, I accidentally saw some clues about what happened two years ago from the computer of the Trojan horse." After Gu Beichen heard this, he frowned slightly "In addition, I checked," Xiao Jing continued. "In the engineering company responsible for the second phase of Yujing lake, there was a company called Yuanda, and the person in charge was Jian Zhanfeng!" Now, Gu Beichen''s eyebrows frown more tightly "What is the relationship between Jane Zhanfeng and Jane Mo?" Gu Beichen asked coldly. When his eyebrows and eyes were frivolous, the eagle''s eyes overflowed with a faint light of horror. Xiao Jing swallowed it secretly, and then hardened his head and said, "father and daughter!" "..." Gu Beichen''s eyebrows were slightly frozen. He didn''t expect that Jane Mo had such a relationship with the original thing. "In addition..." Xiao Jing obviously hesitated today. "On that unexpected night two years ago, Jian Mo was also at Sofia Hotel!" Gu Beichen''s eyes were suddenly cold and deep, "next... Do you want to tell me that the woman who quietly left that night was Jian Mo?" Xiao Jing shook his head hurriedly. "The time is too short, I haven''t checked yet..." he swallowed secretly and said with a hard head, "just, Chen Shao... If the person that night was really miss jane..." Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but slightly lowered his eyelids. There was an unspeakable complexity in his deep eyes... And there was a cold chill in this complexity. That night, he was framed by his second uncle... Ate fantasy drugs. That situation almost ruined him! If it weren''t for that woman, he would have been abandoned! The most important thing is that later, it will fall into a situation that may be out of control The next day, the plum blossoms from the blood stains on the bed sheet made him crazy to know who the woman was... Unfortunately, the woman disappeared. He couldn''t find it anyway! "Check!" Gu Beichen''s voice coldly spilled over his thin lips. Jane Mo, if it happened to be you that night Chapter 67 I called in the morning. In the afternoon, Su Junli asked someone to deliver the tickets for the concert When Jane looked, all three were VIP seats. Xiang night was also surprised, but he didn''t feel embarrassed at all. He took two tickets and thanked Jane Mo all over, and then he showed off with his best friend. Jane Mo called Su Junli, "I got the ticket, thank you!" "Afraid of inconvenience to you, I didn''t send it in person..." Su Junli''s voice was soft, with a gentle smile and a slight meal, "Mo Mo, it''s my honor that you are willing to come to my concert..." "I will go!" Jian Mo looked at the ticket in her hand and smiled involuntarily at Su Junli''s consideration. "I''ll invite you to dinner later." "OK." Su Jun leaned on the hood from his one handed pocket and looked ahead. "By the way, Grandpa said he had the opportunity to invite you to dinner at home." Jian Mo said slightly, "master Su?" "Yes." "That..." Jane Mo was surprised. "Why did your grandfather call me to dinner?" Su Junli smiled and lowered his eyes. "Well, I guess I think you''re my girlfriend..." he half joked, and his eyebrows and eyes burst into a warm smile. Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. "Didn''t you say... I''m married?" "Aren''t you a secret marriage?" Su Junli asked, smiling more at the corners of his mouth. Jian Mo said "ha ha" and grinned: "this joke is not funny at all..." Su Jun lifted his eyes, "well, but it''s really just a joke..." his voice was soft and smiled, but his eyes gradually became deep. After all those years... She probably has no impression at all. It''s just that she forgot, but he and grandpa won''t forget. Jane Mo didn''t take Su Junli''s saying that old man Su would invite her to dinner to heart. After hanging up, she found a text message stuffed in Mr. G: Mrs. Gu, would you like to have dinner together in the evening? Jian Mo looked at the message in a daze, and an unconscious but comfortable smile filled the corners of her mouth. She replied: I will feel very strange if you appear in front of me so often. Gu Beichen didn''t reply directly. After a while, when Jian Mo thought he was busy or waiting for her to take the initiative to send another text message, he called directly. "Why, don''t you want to see me?" Gu Beichen''s voice was dangerously low. Jane Mo grinned, "how could it?!" Her voice is sweet and greasy, "I just feel strange. Is it that your charm is gone and you can''t hook up small three and four... You can only pull me out recently." "How can there be so many little three and four..." Gu Beichen felt happy when listening to Jian Mo''s voice. He didn''t feel it before. He seems to like it more and more recently. "Go south to celebrate his little girlfriend''s birthday and invite us over." I see Jane Mo said in her heart that there was no loss at all. It was a lie, although she was not interested in going out to dinner with Gu Beichen. But for two years, she and Gu Beichen calculated that they really didn''t eat out alone. Their relationship is basically reflected in the bed... Well, occasionally on the desk in the study, on the ground or on the sofa in the living room, they keep crossing and rolling! It''s sad to think about it... It''s just a warm bed, isn''t it?! After work, Jane Mo drove back to lanzeyuan in the strange "modern" car, changed simple but elegant clothes and got on the Maserati newly bought by Gu Beichen The world of the rich, the poor, she doesn''t understand, but she can understand. In the end, they are all dignified people. It''s a shame to drive a car all day and go out. The sports car is different from the regular car of Spyker. Jane Mo only thinks two words can describe... Pull the wind! The car roared all the way to the eastern suburb of Los Angeles, and finally stopped at a manor with pasture. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo get out of the car, thinking that they should be people familiar with their relationship. Jian Mo has no affectation. He directly took Gu Beichen''s arm and walked inside shoulder to shoulder. "So quiet..." Jane Mo sighed with some doubt. Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned at the sword eyebrow, "eh" made a sound, glanced over Jian Mo, and his deep eyes were looking at and wondering Jian Mo found that Gu Beichen had shown such an expression several times since she got on the bus. "Am I... Wearing inappropriate clothes or wearing makeup?" "No." Gu Beichen responded calmly. Jane Mo Ning''s eyes, "then what have you been looking at me for?" Gu Beichen stopped, slowly turned around and looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. His thin lips moved back and forth. At last, he didn''t say anything, but then raised his feet and continued to move forward He wanted to ask about the Sofia Hotel two years ago, but... He felt abrupt. Jane Mo was surprised by Gu Beichen''s behavior. She wanted to ask. She felt that this man was not a human being, so she endured curiosity and didn''t ask. Into the red tile house of the manor, there was no excitement in the imagination, and even... The atmosphere was a little dignified! Gu Beichen stood at the door with Jian Mo and looked at the mess inside. One of them frowned slightly and the other was stunned "What''s going on?" Gu Beichen looked around slightly. After a week, his sight finally fell on Lin Nannan. Lin Nannan, who has always been a playful and smiling face, laughed at himself and said a little tired: "I''ll set the game back. Let''s break up today..." as he said, others were powerless and wanted to leave, and the whole person was shrouded in self mocking sadness. Gu Beichen slightly sideways with Jian Mo and asks Lin to leave to the south. When he goes far, their eyes look back and forth at Li Yunze leaning on the pillar and the Dragon owl holding a cigarette. "Xiaoxiao went to celebrate her birthday with some friends and stood the pigeon to the south." Li Yunze explained, "I''m going to propose to the south today..." Therefore, there are no extra people at this birthday party, only their brothers... Lin Nan wants them to witness his love. A touch of melancholy glided through her heart. Jian Mo looked at the mess in the room and the smashed cake... Even the light refracted in by the sunset through the glass window sent out a colorful light. That diamond ring... It must be big! On the way back, Jane Mo was a little depressed. She couldn''t tell why... It was like something was blocking her heart. There is no woman who doesn''t fantasize about being proposed by her beloved... And there is no woman who doesn''t fantasize about putting on her wedding dress and holding the man in her heart to the other side of the red carpet Once, Chu Zixiao said... Wait for him for up to three years, and he will give her everything in three years! At that time, she was thinking that his proposal would be the most vulgar, putting a proposal ring in the food, or romantically pulling a roadside flower on the street and kneeling on one knee like that... Or, after an intimate waltz, he knelt down with her hand and said affectionately: Jane Mo, marry me! Jane Mo drooped her eyes and laughed at herself... How beautiful the imagination is, how cruel the reality is! "What are you thinking?" Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, and the eagle''s eyes were sharp and deep. Jian Mo didn''t notice Gu Beichen''s expression, but answered subconsciously, "I feel it''s a pity... I think I can witness a romantic proposal!" Chapter 68 When the car stopped at the red light, Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo deeply. Her face clearly said loss, which has nothing to do with pity! It seemed that without thinking, he could guess what she was losing... And such an idea made him very uncomfortable. All the way to lanzeyuan, Gu Beichen stopped the car and got out of the car and walked into the house Jane Mo Xu was trapped in her own thoughts for too long and didn''t find anything wrong with Gu Beichen. After entering the house, while changing shoes, he asked, "ah Chen, shall we have wonton?" Can''t you go without food and go hungry when you come back? "Yes." Gu Beichen responded coldly, and then went upstairs to the study. Jian Mo still didn''t find anything wrong with Gu Beichen. She just turned and went into the kitchen, took out the frozen wonton and served two bowls... Then she called Gu Beichen down to eat. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, and Jian Mo didn''t speak until the atmosphere became more and more rigid, as if the air were frozen, Jian Mo finally found something wrong. Jian Mo secretly looked at Gu Beichen. There was no emotion on his cold, carved face. The eagle''s eyes were slightly drooping. It was clear that it was just a bowl of wonton. He could eat elegance... This man was terrible. "Ah Chen, shall we go for a walk after dinner?" Jane Mo decided to break the silence. "Yes." Jane Mo grinned. Although Gu Beichen met the president''s setting of crazy bullying, it was too depressed, "ah Chen, don''t you want to go?" She pretended to know nothing and looked innocent. Gu Beichen raised his eyes. The eagle eyes looked at the other side and blinked. The flattering Jane morwei frowned invisibly... What''s the matter with him? Recently, it seems that because of her, he has always been affected by too many emotions. Especially... When he thinks that Jian Mo used to be Zixiao''s girlfriend and their relationship in Luoda is very famous, he feels bad. "Not afraid of being photographed by paparazzi?" Gu Beichen asked with an eyebrow. Jane Mo smiled and shook her head. "It depends on whether you want me to expose... If not, who can post the picture of ''Mrs. Gu''?" She said, and the one who smiled was called a thief. Gu Beichen put down the spoon and slowly lay back on the chair. A pair of ink pupils looked at Jian Mo opposite, "you''re smart..." Jane Mo simply put down the spoon and rubbed onto the chair next to Gu Beichen. "Then after eating... Do you want to take a walk?" As she spoke, she smiled pleasantly. "HMM..." Gu Beichen answered without changing his face. As soon as Jane Mo was happy, she wanted to go up and kiss Gu Beichen. However, Gu Beichen dodged Before Jane Mo could react, she heard Gu Beichen''s disgusted voice: "my mouth is full of soup, dirty!" "..." Jian Mo was speechless. Seeing Gu Beichen''s retreat, he was immediately angry. Whether he disliked it or not, he hugged his neck like a child and rubbed the "dirty" mouth on his face. Finally, unwilling, he rubbed his mouth around the corner of his mouth Jane Mo slightly tilted her mouth and moved away from her face. Her star eyes flashed cunning and said discontentedly, "I don''t dislike you!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes slipped a smile. Just when Jian Mo was angry with the accusation, he suddenly turned slightly, and had taken the initiative to capture her lips Some people say that kissing is the most direct way to express love between lovers... Because eating each other''s saliva is a very dirty thing, but it is a wonderful taste between lovers. Jian Mo warmly responded to Gu Beichen''s kiss Are they lovers? Of course not They are husband and wife! It''s just that the couple who don''t agree with each other... However, from the first time, it seems that she doesn''t hate Gu Beichen''s kiss and possession. What is the attitude of possession? Jane Mo has never thought about it... She just feels that when two people seem to be in bed, they fit best. It''s like a sharp sword looking for the most suitable sword cover Well, this metaphor is a little evil! For Jane Mo''s inattention, Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep, and his teeth were slightly forced "Well", a painful cry spilled over Jian Mo''s throat. She pushed Gu Beichen away and felt numb when her lower lip was bitten, "Gu Beichen, are you a dog?!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently raised an evil radian. In private, Jian Mo would call him ah Chen, and occasionally he would call his husband very tired... Only when he was in a hurry, would he even call him by name and surname. Gu Beichen got up with a smile, "I go upstairs to change my clothes and then go for a walk!" In Jian Mo''s angry and happy mood, Gu Beichen went upstairs to change his clothes... Took off his suits and shoes, dressed casually... V-neck cotton long sleeved T-shirt and khaki trousers, took off his coldness and pride, leaving a bit of evil charm. Walk hand in hand on the path from lanze garden to a small lake behind. Even if it is autumn, the scenery is still lush. The wind at night is a little cool, but Jian Mo has never been warm at this moment. It is slowly introduced into the position of the heart from the palm of their hands Slightly drooping his eyes and looking at the hand being held, Gu Beichen is a perfect man from all aspects. Jane Mo is sometimes afraid... She is afraid that she can''t control her heart and will unconsciously become greedy for Gu Beichen. If she is moved and falls in love, I''m afraid she will die miserably in the end. Gu Beichen is a coquettish person. If you don''t talk, don''t expect him to chat with you. Jane Mo didn''t want to be cold all the way. In addition, she felt that he was a little unhappy before. Although... I don''t know why he was unhappy, she still found a topic to talk about. I don''t know what''s going on. I talked about the neodymium film at the place where a jade star was burst recently, which had been repaired several times in the hospital... Even, which hospital, record and date were clearly revealed. "Now people really have no moral bottom line..." Jian Mo said angrily, "let me repair a computer, but I will copy people''s privacy and even return it to Po online!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised an indifferent radian, copied his pocket with one hand, and walked forward with the other hand holding Jian Mo''s small hand... Listening to her angry voice, he didn''t respond to her. The more Jane Mo said, the more angry she became. "Besides, the first time I didn''t have it, why do I have to make it up?" She hummed, then looked away at Gu Beichen and asked, "do you men care about a woman''s first time?" "Fortunately..." Gu Beichen said faintly, "I have no Neodymium Complex." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and suddenly remembered that it was not the first time she had been with him. Thinking of this, Jane Mo looked down and felt a little heavy The atmosphere seemed to be dignified at once, and even the surrounding air became stiff with the silence of Jian mo. "When was your first time?" Gu Beichen seemed to ask unintentionally. Chapter 69 Jian Mo was asked by Gu Beichen. For a moment, she didn''t know how to answer Gu Beichen took her and sat down on a bench. Looking at the clear lake under the breeze, his eyes became deep. "It''s not the first time when you''re with me." Jane Mo lowered her eyes and grinned at the corners of her mouth, deliberately pressed down the churning thoughts in her heart, pulled a smile and asked coyly: "ah Chen, do you particularly care?" She also deliberately circled his arm and leaned her head on his shoulder, a rhythm that is too late even if you care. Gu Beichen''s eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply. Under the ink night, the pupil stained with ink seemed to be combined with Mo Kong... He didn''t have Neodymium Complex, but why did he mind a little when Jian Mo asked him if he cared?! "Just curious..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth lightly, and there was no emotion on his cold face. Jane Mo sipped her lips, then smiled and asked, "when was the first time you?" "Me?" Gu Beichen said softly, then his eyes were deep and said, "maybe in the 14th and 5th..." "So early!" Jane Mo was surprised and suddenly got up from Gu Beichen. Her bright eyes looked at him with surprised curiosity, "won''t you tell the underage girl?" "..." Gu Beichen slightly picked his eyebrow tail, "then I didn''t do the bird thing." But you don''t have a little bird... This is what Jane Mo made up in her heart. Gu Beichen was lying on the back of the chair, with a wanton radian on one side of his thin lip. His eyes looked at Jian Mo more and more deeply, "I gave my own right hand..." Jane Mo didn''t expect Gu Beichen''s answer to be so serious. "Teng" turned red... Fortunately, the light here was dim and couldn''t see clearly. After waiting for a while, Gu Beichen asked again, "what about you? How old was your first time? You won''t tell me... Did you hand it in when you were ten?" Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "Gu Beichen, you are a bird!" Gu Beichen smiled, "well, tell me, how old..." Jane Mo is twenty-three years old. She was twenty-one two years ago... If she was really that age without her first night, it might be a coincidence. Gu Beichen was filled with hope, and his eyes looked at Jian Mo cautiously, waiting for her answer. Jane Mo was afraid to look into Beichen''s eyes. She didn''t know what she was guilty of. She just felt... She couldn''t think about that night seriously. Because of the leakage of the design drawings of my father''s construction company, the originally good family suddenly became short of money. The most sad thing is that under the constant pressure of the above developers, the wages of migrant workers can not be paid, and things are getting worse and worse. Dad couldn''t, so he had to ask his brother to find some previous relationships But in the end?! Not only did she not get the guarantee and money, she was also cheated to Sofia Hotel... A strange juice, her favorite drink, which ruined her bright life. She didn''t know who the man was, but knew that he galloped wildly on her... Tirelessly time and time again, even tearing her apart regardless of her being the first time. The only thing she has an impression of is that the other party should be a very young man. Jian Mo''s breathing was a little rapid, and her body trembled uncontrollably "Cold?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and gathered a thin sweater for Jane mo. Jane Mo''s heart was suddenly startled and said subconsciously, "I was an adult for the first time..." she seemed to confirm that the first time had nothing to do with that night and hurriedly said, "when I was 19!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with bright eyes, as if she wanted to see if she was lying... However, this woman sometimes hid her emotions very well, even if he couldn''t understand it. "Really?" Gu Beichen still had a little extravagant hope in his heart. "Is it necessary to lie to you?" Jane Mo turned her eyes, then turned her face to one side and deliberately said, "if it''s necessary to cheat, I''m just like that actress. I''d better mend a film before marrying you... Alas, now I think it''s all regret. If I were the first time, would you be better for me?" In fact, it was to cover up her guilt. Gu Beichen said in his heart that he was not lost. It was a lie. When Xiao Jing said that Jian Mo was also at Sofia Hotel that night, he had more or less hopes... If it was really her that night, he thought... He would really treat her better. Unfortunately, it was not her that night Suddenly, Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Jane Mo didn''t have it for the first time when she was 19 years old. If he remembered correctly, Xiao Jing once said that Jane Mo had a good relationship with Zixiao since the second semester of College... Isn''t that her first time to Zixiao? Gu Beichen suddenly felt uncomfortable... His wife gave her nephew the first time. Why do you think it''s embarrassing?! Originally, when she came back at that time, Jane Mo was stunned in the car. It was estimated that she was thinking about Chu Zixiao, which made Gu Beichen uncomfortable. Well... At this moment, when I thought that the first time was probably given to Zixiao, he was even worse. Jian Mo found that Gu Beichen was in a worse mood after taking a walk... Specifically when she was captured. In the past, he was domineering, but he would take into account her feelings and comfort... He was very good at this and could adjust the weather. Seeing that she could reach Gaochao, he would feel unique achievements. But today, it was obvious that he completely ignored her and was obviously venting... Even left a lot of purple and red marks on her. Jian Mo was fainted by Gu Beichen''s strong physical strength... At the last wave, when she couldn''t bear it and her body reached the highest point sensitively, her eyes fainted as soon as she was black. When she woke up the next day, Jane Mo felt very ashamed... But what made her even more ashamed was that even if she wore high collar clothes, she couldn''t hide the mark of sucking and kissing in her ear. "I won''t come back these days..." Gu Beichen put down this sentence indifferently before leaving, and left without superfluous expression. Jane Mo was still standing at the entrance of the stairs, watching her leave with a lonely figure, slightly out of mind The door slammed. Suddenly, Jane Mo felt as if she had been stuffed with cotton in her heart, and she couldn''t breathe. Even if he didn''t come back in Mingyuan, even if it was a lot of days later. But it''s never been so cold when I left "If you say you don''t mind, you don''t mind!" Jane Mo drooped her eyes and muttered, and the corners of her mouth touched bitterness. She didn''t have time to mourn her first time, just like that night, everything couldn''t allow her to mourn and mourn for the first time After cleaning up her mood, Jane Mo didn''t have breakfast at home. She just bought a cup of soybean milk and two steamed buns on the way to the company. As soon as he entered the office, Xiang night came in with something in his hand "Sister Mo, an invitation to the University of Los Angeles celebration!" Xiang night handed the invitation to her. Then she looked at Jian Mo''s neck with a curious face and sharp and bright eyes. The thief asked vaguely, "sister Mo, are you... Too fierce this night?!" Chapter 70 Jane Mo has been unable to explain. For Gu Beichen''s madness last night and her indifference this morning, she sighed secretly... Deliberately ignoring Xiang night''s curiosity, she picked up the invitation and looked through it. The University of Los Angeles holds a school celebration every five years. She didn''t catch up with it during school. This is her first encounter... I didn''t expect to receive an invitation. "Next Saturday..." Jian Mo looked at the time. It was the day before Su Jun left the concert. "Sister Mo, I heard that many celebrities have been invited this time. Many senior students from various departments have come back..." Xiang night''s attention was drawn to the school celebration. "I have to ask for leave next Thursday and Friday and go back to decorate the venue." This year is the 95th anniversary of the University of Los Angeles. It''s so big before it''s 100 years old... She feels that the University of Los Angeles can''t invite students from all over the world to come back when it''s 100 years old? "Sister Mo, are you going?" Xiang Wan is more concerned about this issue. "Go..." Of course, it''s an honor to be invited by her alma mater. She''s not a big brand and is arrogant. Jane Mo called Li Xiaoyue after going out late... She also received the invitation. She was immediately excited to hear that Jane Mo also received it. The best friend of the two grew up together. Later, they got together in college. They just had different interests and different departments... There were too many beautiful things to miss in their student days. Naturally, it became meaningful to go back to school day. In a twinkling of an eye, it''s school day I don''t know if it''s for the sake of timing. It suddenly cleared up after several days of gloomy weather. Jane Mo picked up jeans and a slightly loose plaid shirt, put it on, a pair of canvas shoes and a backpack... She was just like the girl in her 18th and 9th year who had just entered the university campus. Looking at herself in the mirror, Jane Mo felt very tender... But she didn''t feel embarrassed. After leaving the villa and getting on the car, the parking space on one side has been empty for many days Gu Beichen hasn''t come back since he left that day. Occasionally, Jian Mo can hear his news from financial reports and gossip women in the company. It''s a little strange. She''s obviously used to the state for more than a year, but she''s suddenly not used to it. Start the car, Jane Mo takes back her unknown loss and drives to Luoda Luoda is an old school, but it is not in the urban area. It is just the opposite direction to lanze garden. While waiting for the traffic light, Jian Mo turned on the radio... I don''t know if it''s a coincidence that she was broadcasting the news about Gu Beichen. "Early this morning, someone photographed Chen Shao and Luo Xiaotong, the youngest daughter of a real estate developer, coming out of the imperial resort one after another... Although they staggered the time, they were photographed. Finally, Luo Xiaotong got on Chen Shao''s car..." Jane Mo was slightly stunned and looked at the small touch screen as if there was that picture on it. "Didi -" There was a hurried whistle. Jian Mo subconsciously looked back, looked at the indicator light that had turned green, and hurriedly started the car to drive forward The voice of the anchor still came from the radio station: "it has been heard before. There is an ambiguous relationship between the two, but it has only been heard all the time. There is no substantive evidence. This time..." Jane Mo didn''t listen to what was said later. She just turned off the radio with hatred... The good mood when she went out suddenly fell to the bottom of the valley. "If you want to find someone to spread gossip, you can''t find someone similar? Gu Beichen doesn''t mind the price reduction of that stupid woman..." Jane Mo held the steering wheel and murmured. She slipped a touch of sadness in her heart, but she didn''t face up to why. When she got to Luoda, Jane Mo found a parking space and walked in the centenary school Because of the school day, all the school clubs began to sell some souvenirs to increase the income of the club. Jian Mo also bought a commemorative wrist guard... Looking at the dense people, she suddenly felt like going back to school. Many people are invited today, most of them are adults Luo in Los Angeles Xu is a famous school. At least half of the people who go out of Los Angeles University are excellent in all fields. The mobile phone vibrated in her pocket. Jian Mo looked at Li Xiaoyue and hurriedly picked it up "Girl, where is it?" As soon as the phone was connected, Li Xiaoyue shouted excitedly. "I''m at the North Gate... Where are you?" "I''m in the law department. Come and find me!" Jane Mo turned her eyes. "I haven''t reported to our department yet..." she looked at the time. "I''ll go to the professor and order Mao first. I''ll come to you later." "You must come here for an hour at most..." "Why?" Jane is strange. Li Xiaoyue reluctantly gritted her teeth and said, "Mo Shaochen, the most popular senior in the law department in those years, that is, the one who is more popular than Luo Zixiao, will give a speech today..." she was so excited that she couldn''t. "I''ve occupied a place for you. You can come to me directly in the auditorium of the law department later." Li Xiaoyue was admitted to the law department because of a report by Mo Shaochen at school. Then she looked through all his lawsuit videos and entered the legal world without hesitation. After Jane Mo promised Li Xiaoyue, she went to the architecture department. After meeting the professor and chatting for a while, she planned to go to the law department "Jane Mo, you just sent this to the teaching assistant office on the fifth floor of the law department for me..." when the professor heard that she was going to the law department, he quickly turned over a file bag and came out. Jane Moying took the file to the law department... Look at the time. There were still 20 minutes left from Li Xiaoyue''s appointment. She went to the teaching building to send the file first. Today, because it''s school day and the school is on holiday, there are only two people in the TA Office... Unfortunately, they both know each other. One is Han Zhenzhen, who was crazy about chasing Chu Zixiao, and the other is Li ranxia, who has a feeling of forbearance towards Chu Zixiao Han Zhenzhen is now working as a teaching assistant in the Graduate School of Luoyang University. Li ranxia and her former dormitory. However, Han Zhenzhen never knew that Li ranxia also liked Chu Zixiao. "This is sent by Professor Wang..." Jian Mo put it down and smiled politely at the corners of her mouth. "You''re busy, I''ll find Xiao Yue..." the words fell, and they didn''t give them a chance to talk. They had turned away. "Jian Mo -" Han Zhenzhen shouted after being stunned, then got up quickly and chased out. Jane Mo wants to act as if she didn''t hear it. Don''t say she didn''t like Han Zhenzhen when she was with Chu Zixiao. Now she''s not together, she still doesn''t. It''s not because of his rival, but because of his personality. "Jane Mo, stop!" Han Zhenzhen has chased out and grabbed Jian Mo, "why, old friends meet and hurry to leave so soon?" Jane Mo sighed, slightly raised her eyebrow and asked, "what''s up?" Not a friend, really not in the mood to detour. "Jane Mo, what did you say?" Han Zhenzhen was angry when he looked at Jian Mo''s fox spirit. "Once you swore in front of me that Chu Zixiao was your man, but now? You dumped him..." The last thing Jane Mo wants to mention when she comes back to Luoda is the things she had with Chu Zixiao. How helpless she was two years ago, and how painful she felt about the end between them, "you don''t care about me and him!" Then she turned and wanted to leave. "Jane Mo, how can you live up to Chu Zixiao''s deep love for you..." Han Zhenzhen saw that Jane Mo was going to leave and wanted to grab her after roaring. Jian Mo was upset. When Han Zhenzhen''s hand touched her, he subconsciously pushed her Han Zhenzhen stepped back when his foot was unstable. His waist suddenly hit the railing, and the whole person fell back... This is the fifth floor, and the corridor is open. If he fell down, he would not die, and he was almost useless. Jane Mo couldn''t think. She turned around subconsciously and grabbed her wrist... However, because of inertia, Han Zhenzhen brought her forward in a few steps In due time, Han Zhenzhen has thrown out of the railing "Ah --" Chapter 71 Han Zhenzhen screamed, with fear of death "ah -" Jian Mo tightly clutched Han Zhenzhen''s wrist, and the other hand also vigorously grasped the railing, trying to prevent her body from being dragged down by her "Help -" Han Zhenzhen shouted with a pale face. His voice was broken because of fear. When Li ranxia came out, she just saw Jian Mo pushing Han Zhenzhen from the office. She was stunned and didn''t react until she shouted "help". Just wanted to go out, but suddenly stopped If Han Zhenzhen falls down unfortunately at this moment, Jian Mo will constitute intentional homicide! A sinister light slipped from the bottom of his eyes, but it just disappeared in a moment... There was a voice of breathing and panting, mixed with Han Zhenzhen''s frightened voice. Jian Mo was gradually dragged out of the railing by Han Zhenzhen''s falling strength... However, she can''t let go. Once she let go, Han Zhenzhen may die or be disabled. "Li Ran Xia -" Jian Mo clenched his teeth and shouted. Li ranxia suddenly woke up. When his face was slightly cold, he had hurried out of the office Together, they dragged Han Zhenzhen up, and everyone leaned against the wall or sat on the ground, panting. After taking a breath, Han Zhenzhen sat on the ground like that, pointed to Jian Mo and scolded, "Jian Mo, you want me to die, I won''t let you live!" There is no reason for those who survive the disaster. Jian Mo doesn''t care, but looks at Li ranxia standing opposite coldly... The office is next to the railing and the door is open. She doesn''t believe Li ranxia didn''t hear the cry for help at all. However, Li ranxia came out when she called her Li Ran''s summer feeling was greeted by Jian Mo''s cold eyes and did not avoid her at all... Their eyes were entangled in the air, and finally no one showed weakness. Jane Mo''s cell phone began to vibrate in her pocket. She took it out and saw that it was Li Xiaoyue. Then she said, "I''ll be there in five minutes!" Then she hung up without giving her a chance to talk. Then she looked over Li ranxia and said to Han Zhenzhen, "unexpectedly, no one wants to... You have no right to ask about me and Chu Zixiao." After saying this, Jian Mo ignored Han Zhenzhen''s sharp scolding and walked to the stairs "Jane Mo, this is the crime of intentional injury. I won''t let you go!" Han Zhenzhen saw that Jian Mo kept walking, so he roared. Jane Mo stopped and looked slightly... Talking and getting along with the people who study law is heart plugging! Glancing back slightly, Jane Mo said coldly, "you can sue if you want..." she sneered, "but I hope some people understand that not everything can be alone!" Then she left without stopping. Han Zhenzhen was angry and didn''t pay attention to Jian Mo''s words... Li Ran''s summer eyes were cold. The good mood that originally came to attend the school celebration disappeared in an instant... Jian Mo went to the auditorium of the law department, which became noisy because of waiting Jane Mo looked around and didn''t find Li Xiaoyue. She called her, but no one answered. Because there were too many people, Jane Mo couldn''t squeeze into the front. Finally, she had no choice but to send a text message to her: I''m a little uncomfortable. I''m walking around the campus. Call me after you listen to the speech. Jian Mo turned out of the auditorium and walked near the law department... Because she had been with Chu Zixiao before, she was very familiar with the law department. It was a quiet learning corridor through the small forest. In the past, she often accompanied Chu Zixiao to study there... In fact, with her, he was not interested in learning at all. Memory slipped through my mind as quickly as film. Jian Mo stood under a grape shelf and looked at the stone table and stool in front of him. There was an illusion in front of her Once, she didn''t dare to tell him... When she sat there talking with him, she fell asleep on the stone table. When he woke up, he opened his eyes and saw Chu Zixiao''s handsome face lying on the stone table with a smile in his mouth. He just said in a warm anger, "if you dare to do design all night next time, I''ll directly pull you to the dormitory and put you in the right place!" Chu Zixiao is usually gentle, but occasionally when she is with her, she will say something ambiguous... Because there are not many, she can often blush. Jane sat on the table with her eyes closed like foam. Because everyone gathered in various places on the school day, it was quieter than before. Chu Zixiao walked along the corridor with his hands in his pockets. When he saw Jian Mo lying on the stone table, he was frozen there There was a lot of excitement in the law department. He didn''t even participate in Mo Shaochen''s speech. He just came here inexplicably... Unexpectedly, she was there. Chu Zixiao walked slowly in the past. He didn''t know whether it was subconscious or unintentional. His steps were very light Jian Mo seemed to be asleep. Chu Zixiao sat down in her previous position. She didn''t feel it. As if to retrieve the original memory, Chu Zixiao also sat like that, put his arms on the stone table, lay on the back of his hand and quietly looked at Jian mo. The sun playfully passed through the loose grape trellis and fell on Jane mo. she fell asleep quietly, just like at the beginning, full of peaceful tranquility... But what is the slight sadness twisted between her eyebrows for? Did she think of them in the past? Chu Zixiao slowly raised his head and closed his eyes... Endured the guilt of morality in his heart, and his lips... Gently fell on Jian Mo''s cheek Such a kiss is like a dragonfly skimming the water. It''s so light that it hardly touches... However, it makes Chu Zixiao''s heart ache because of that faint touch. Once, he could taste her beauty unscrupulously... He took care of her, cherished her and wanted to hold her in the palm of his hand. But now, she is his little aunt Chu Zixiao''s heart is more and more painful. Such pain is not only his current identity, but also... It was the matter of Jane''s family two years ago. If Yuanda was really framed by his father, how would he face her? "Well..." Jane Mo whispered. Chu Zixiao quickly retracted his face and stared at Jian mo Jane Mo gently fanned her eyelashes, and then slowly opened her eyes... To her goal, it was Chu Zixiao''s face. She must still be dreaming? How can I see Zixiao?! "Zixiao..." Jane Mo whispered softly, her voice was bleary after waking up, "how can I see you here..." she said, and she wrung her eyebrows slightly. Suddenly, Jane Mo''s pupils dilated, suddenly sat up and looked at Chu Zixiao with surprise... This is not a dream, he is really here! Looking at the change of Jian Mo''s expression, Chu Zixiao''s eyes gradually deepened and slowly opened his mouth: "I came around and saw you sleeping here." Jane Mo was a little embarrassed. She just wanted to lie down, but unexpectedly fell asleep... The most important thing is that she seemed to dream that Chu Zixiao had just kissed her cheek, so she woke up "Well, you..." Jane Mo wanted to ask whether it was just a dream or true, but it was inappropriate to think about it. Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but his eyes were burning with Jian mo... Jian Mo didn''t know whether it was the cheek kiss of the dream or what to say just now... Suddenly, the atmosphere was suddenly embarrassed. Chapter 72 Just when Jianmo didn''t know how to break the silence, the mobile phone rang at the right time... No matter who called, Jianmo was very grateful. He hurriedly took out his mobile phone and saw the call from Li Xiaoyue. When he picked it up, he got up and went aside "Ah, girl, it''s a pity that you didn''t come..." Li Xiaoyue wailed for a while, showing the excitement after excitement. "God, Mo Shaochen is so handsome... When he talked about cases, it''s like killing us who study law!" Jane Mo seemed to feel li Xiaoyue''s excitement, and the corners of her mouth couldn''t help raising, "is the speech over?" "It''s over. I just came out. Where are you?" Li Xiaoyue''s voice was filled with forbearance and excitement. "Girl, come to me quickly. I want to share with you..." What? There''s no back Jane Mo waited for several seconds and didn''t see Li Xiaoyue talking. She couldn''t help but wonder, "Xiaoyue?" "Girl..." Li Xiaoyue looked at the man who was hugged forward by the school leaders. The natural King''s momentum showed the coldness of domineering. The cold and carved handsome face had no expression, and a pair of eagle eyes fell down in front, "I seem to see your husband!" "Huh?" Jane Mo didn''t react. Li Xiaoyue fanned her eyes, "really, I saw Gu Beichen... Several big leaders of the school accompany me to visit the campus!" Jane Mo reacted and asked subconsciously, "where are you?" "I''m on the road from the auditorium to the financial department..." "Wait for me, I''ll come right away!" Jane Mo spoke, hung up the phone and left, even forgetting that Chu Zixiao was still behind. After walking for several steps, Jian Mo remembered, looked back at Chu Zixiao awkwardly and said, "well... I''ll find Xiao Yue." "I just want to go there too, together..." Chu Zixiao got up and didn''t know what Jian Mo was worried about. He just thought Li Xiaoyue was urging him. Jane Mo can''t refuse, so she can only nod. Because together with Chu Zixiao, Jian Mo can only suppress the inexplicable anxiety in his heart and walk to the auditorium of the law department step by step. Gu Beichen was invited to Luoyang university mainly because the University hoped that emperor group could set up scholarships and invest in a library of Finance and law in Luoyang University. "Chen Shao, Mo Shaochen is surrounded by students from several colleges and departments. I''m afraid it will take a while to get away." Someone from the school hurried over and said. As soon as the headmaster heard this, he hurriedly said, "Chen Shao, why don''t you go to the office and wait... When Shaochen is finished, let him come quickly." "No need..." Gu Beichen said indifferently, and the eagle''s eyes slipped through the auditorium. "Go everywhere. Wait until Mo Shaochen is finished." The headmaster hurried to answer and wanted to personally take Gu Beichen around the campus Just after walking for a while, Gu Beichen suddenly stopped and looked at the two people walking side by side in the shade of the tree ahead. When the headmaster and others saw Gu Beichen stop, they also stopped one after another and looked along his line of sight... They saw Chu Zixiao and Jian Mo coming. Chu Zixiao is the most famous person in the law department of Luoyang university after Mo Shaochen, and everyone in the University knows him. Jane Mo is also very famous on campus because of her love with Chu Zixiao. Although it can''t be said that everyone in the school recognized her, someone recognized her. "Chen Shao, that''s Chu Zixiao... His strength is no less than Mo Shaochen. He is also a very excellent student in the Department of law in recent years." A vice president quickly flattered, "his girlfriend, from the Department of Architecture... Well, if I remember correctly, it seems that now a construction engineering company with a good scale and a student bully of that year..." Because of the introduction of the vice president, Gu Beichen''s face has been slightly shrouded in haze. Unfortunately, the vice president said happily and didn''t find it. "If Chen Shao wants to form the first legal group of the group, Chu Zixiao is also good... Unfortunately, he is mainly engaged in criminal defense and doesn''t like commercial defense." The vice president is also a professor in the Department of law. There is obviously some regret in his voice. Chu Zixiao was talking to Jian mo. when he got out of the path, he felt that many eyes fell on their side. When his eyes subconsciously turned around, he happened to be opposite Gu Beichen. Jane Mo also felt something wrong. She turned her head in the direction of Chu Zixiao and just saw Gu Beichen coldly withdraw her sight. The coldness of taking a pocket with one hand raised her feet and continued to move forward. Heart, suddenly astringent pain... Jane Mo didn''t want to ask what would happen, but she was suddenly depressed. "Why is Beichen here?" Chu Zixiao frowned slightly and looked puzzled. Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth and didn''t speak... The purpose she was eager to come over seemed to be at a loss at this moment. The corners of her mouth pulled hard. Jian Mo tried to cover up the inexplicable emotion in her heart and said, "well, I''ll find Xiaoyue..." she didn''t wait for Chu Zixiao to speak, and the person had silently walked forward. Chu Zixiao didn''t move, but looked at Jian Mo''s back She didn''t notice it, but he could see clearly... When Beichen was indifferent to her just now, her obvious eyebrows and eyes changed from excitement to loss. Mo Mo, are you... In love with Beichen? Once again, Chu Zixiao asked himself. He resisted the affirmative answer. He is more willing to accept that she is forced to be with Beichen than she is in love with Beichen. When Li Xiaoyue saw Jian Mo, she didn''t find her a little lonely. She immediately opened her characteristics as a lawyer and kept talking. Naturally, the topics are all around Mo Shaochen "By the way, did you see your husband when you came here?" Li Xiaoyue suddenly asked. Thinking of Gu Beichen''s indifference just now, Jane Mo felt a little uncomfortable, "HMM." She answered casually. Li Xiaoyue rolled her eyes. "In other words, your husband is really the focus of attention wherever he goes... You didn''t see a female student discharge on him just a long way away. If there were no school leaders, I would have come up directly to devote myself..." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and was not in the mood to talk about this topic. "What are you going to do later?" Asked Jane mo. "It''s basically all right. I came back today to see Mr. Mo''s speech..." Li Xiaoyue looked satisfied. "I''ll give you the rest of the time, you see!" "Let me finish my work and go to support her," Jian Mo didn''t forget to explain to him. "If you''re okay, just go with me." ¡°OK£¡¡± Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue both went to the architecture department again. They didn''t know whether it was a coincidence or something. When they went to the architecture department, they had to go through the finance department... Who knows, they met Gu Beichen and others who turned around. "Tut Tut, is this called fate... Or is the enemy''s road narrow?" Li Xiaoyue glanced at Gu Beichen and said to Jian mo. Jane Mo didn''t speak, but her eyes unconsciously stared at Gu Beichen and moved with his steps. Gu Beichen and the school leaders came face to face. From beginning to end, they didn''t look at Jane Mo, as if she was transparent... Well, it was the kind of transparency of strangers. Seeing him like this, Jane Mo was very angry... Then, she made a very two goods missing string. When Gu Beichen was about to cross Jian Mo''s side, she said, "Chen Shao, I admire you very much. Can you invite you to dinner?" Chapter 73 Jian Mo''s words surprised not only the school leaders, but also Li Xiaoyue Then, Li Xiaoyue made a very wise choice, which was to step back and declare that she had nothing to do with the funny goods. Gu Beichen''s stride, which was far from going out, slowly stopped. After a slight pause for a few seconds, he slowly turned his head... Eagle eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply, "do you know how many people in this campus want to say the same thing as you?" Jane Mo was embarrassed. She just said that when she was really out of her mind... It was difficult for her to ride a tiger at the moment, and she could only raise her eyebrows confidently, "but only one Jane Mo dared to say it in the whole campus!" In the eyes of school leaders, Jane Mo is a little out of line at the moment... This can be said with confidence. Even let Gu Beichen know her name in such a special way. However, at that time, she just introduced Jian Mo to Gu Beichen that she was Chu Zixiao''s girlfriend. Now she accosted like this and really hit them in the face Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows and looked at Mingming''s embarrassed face, but another pair of Jian Mo, who was unwilling to show weakness, smiled secretly. Today, Jane Mo''s dress is very young. Walking on the campus, she is just like the newcomers who have just entered the campus... Full of vitality. Gu Beichen thought very much at the moment that such a pure dress and the dress of his successful people at the moment really feel like an old cow gnawing at tender grass. "Miss Jane has nothing to do to get the right to compare the emperor''s design..." Gu Beichen said coldly. The eagle''s eyes slightly picked an evil and indifferent arc, and even the corners of her mouth showed a trace of indifference. Jian Mo was stunned for a moment and didn''t react yet. Gu Beichen and the school leaders had left Li Xiaoyue looked at Gu Beichen''s back and walked to Jian Mo, "say... Your husband is not as annoying as he thought!" Give it back to Jane Mo! Did others see it just now, but she saw it clearly. Jane Mo must have been out of her mind before she said the invitation without thinking... She was completely dead behind. But Gu Beichen''s words undoubtedly made the school leaders think that Jian Mo was invited for the purpose of designing the draft comparison Jane Mo returned to her senses, glanced at Gu Beichen''s proud figure, pursed the corners of her mouth, and shrugged her shoulders. "Tut tut..." Li Xiaoyue saw her look like she was dying, so she took out her makeup mirror from her bag and put it in front of Jian Mo, "look at your appearance of being abandoned and resentful." Jian Mo impolitely opened Li Xiaoyue''s hand, "go away... Don''t you see my sister brewing to play an annual drama of distressed women?" Seeing that Jian Mo was dead again, Li Xiaoyue couldn''t help laughing. Then she hooked her arm and asked, "girl, won''t you fake Gu Beichen?" Jane Mo only felt that she suddenly "clicked" in her heart. That feeling was like being poked in her mind. Li Xiaoyue grew up with Jian mo after all. She is too familiar with this woman... Jian Mo''s expression... She can''t help frowning and retreating slightly to look at Jian mo. "Girl, don''t tell me... Are you really interested in Gu Beichen?" "How is that possible?!" Li Xiaoyue also hopes it''s impossible. They all know that this marriage can''t last long... There was no wedding at the beginning, and they only said that they showed the wedding dress and certificate to the Gu family. Jian Mo said to Gu Beichen that it was a person who took money to warm the bed If you are moved, the last injured person cannot be Gu Beichen, but Jian mo. Because of continuous accidents, Jian Mo had no interest in the school celebration. She just took Li Xiaoyue to support the activities in the Department of architecture and left. Today, Li Xiaoyue came here without driving. She left in Jian Mo''s car... After getting on the car, she couldn''t help but be surprised to hear the roaring engine sound. "Girl, your car... How do I feel like a sports car?" "Then think of it as a sports car..." Jane Mo also joked. Li Xiaoyue naturally didn''t think much, but also laughed a few words... Think about it, it''s not the first time for her to take this car, or she accompanied Jane Mo to buy it. Because it was a weekend and they didn''t go to work or have a court session, they simply found a letter bar, read books and drink coffee to kill time. Li Xiaoyue read a book about the case debate published by Mo Shaochen with great interest. Jian Mo was bored to read the magazine. Who knows that what he pulled out was a book with Gu Beichen and Lu man as the cover... But Gu Beichen''s face was only one-third of the profile. Sit down on the stairs, Jane Mo opens the magazine and turns to the interview After roughly sweeping, Jane Mo felt that she couldn''t find happiness for herself. The magazine came out yesterday and wrote about Gu Beichen''s visit to Lu man''s new play two days ago... The report is even more obscure. It is said that Gu Beichen came forward to solve the problem that Lu man''s new play was blocked this time. Staring at the pictures in the magazine, although the light is not very good, you can still see Gu Beichen talking to Lu man with a warm smile on the corner of his mouth... That pair of obsidian like ink pupils are full of softness. Jian Mo is also familiar with such eyes. Every time Gu Beichen excitedly reaches a point on her, he will show such an expression... It''s an expression of possessiveness. "Di" slipped by with a light sound. Jane Mo hurriedly took out her mobile phone for fear of disturbing others'' reading. After the mute was first adjusted, Jane Mo opened the text message... But when she saw the sender, she suddenly felt empty. What is she hoping for? Jane Mo, take care of your heart, or... No one can save you. Tail number 3719, from Chu Zixiao. Several friends made an appointment to have dinner in the evening and said they would call you... Together, okay? Jane Mo was not in the mood to go. Before she replied, she saw Li Xiaoyue coming. "Girl," said Li Xiaoyue softly, "Tang Yu shouted to have dinner together in the evening, shall we?" As she said this, she sat down beside Jian Mo, looked out and saw the text message, "just be a friend. Anyway, she can''t die of old age and don''t communicate with each other in the future." Jane Mo knew Li Xiaoyue''s meaning and thought about it. She felt that Gu Beichen was in a bad mood one day. She simply nodded and agreed. After they left the book bar, they went to the agreed hotel, which is the branch of Nanxiang building near Luoda. When Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue arrived, many people from the law department had arrived. Han Zhenzhen and Li ranxia were also there... There were other departments with good relations on weekdays. "Alas, Xiaomo and Xiaoyue are coming..." a fat man with wide eyes on his face pointed to them and shouted. People''s eyes subconsciously looked down the fat man. I don''t know who sighed, so they exclaimed, "tut Tut, Jian Mo, this is a cold goddess fan for ten years... Pure clothes can''t stop it." Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue came over, knew each other, and said hello. "Zixiao," said someone who didn''t know where he was, "why, you won''t be separated from our Jane beauty when you come back from abroad for a few years? I''m trying to be obvious. If you don''t watch closely, I''ll get into trouble." As soon as the man''s words fell, there was a burst of laughter... However, some people who knew that they had broken up looked at the faces of Chu Zixiao and Jian Mo one after another. "Lin fan, even if I''m separated from Zixiao, I have to take a fancy to you..." Jane Mo joked freely, breaking the rather treacherous atmosphere. Chapter 74 "Yes..." Lin Fan replied with a quick smile. "I''m not at the same level as Zixiao... There''s no way. I''m not as good as my face and career, and even my ability to pick up girls!" Lin Fan''s self ridicule immediately aroused everyone''s laughter. Tang Yu looked at Jian Mo with his hands in his pockets, and there was a look at the bottom of his eyes. Han Zhenzhen looked at her coldly and said with some profound and treacherous meaning: "that''s why some people give up some good choices. Naturally, if they can''t choose a better one, they despise it." Jian Mo chuckled, as if he didn''t understand Han Zhenzhen''s potential ridicule, "yes... I''m quite satisfied with this!" She raised her eyebrows. "But fortunately, if I want to eat grass back, some horses still can''t eat grass." It''s no secret that Han Zhenzhen likes Chu Zixiao. He used to fight Jian mo... Although Jian Mo doesn''t study law, he''s not a fuel-efficient person. Even if you don''t bully, you must be the one who returns it. Han Zhenzhen''s face was suddenly cold. Just when he wanted to say something, Lin Fan hurried to make a round, "Alas, fat man, are all the people here? Are you ready to have a dinner..." The fat man also hurried to answer the words, shouted and went to the box. "Tut Tut, you said... Why is she so childish?" Li Xiaoyue said in Jian Mo''s ear, "Chu Zixiao is single now. If she has the ability, she will go after her!" Chu Zixiao frowned slightly, and his eyebrows and eyes slid over Li Xiaoyue with a deep touch, and then borrowed Jian Mo''s words, "even if she chases, I can see..." "Well," Li Xiaoyue loosened Jian Mo, "you two go together, and Tang Yu and I will make love..." said, ignoring Jian Mo''s resentful eyes, people smiled and walked side by side with Tang Yu. Jian Mo secretly feigned Li Xiaoyue''s stomach and could only go with Chu Zixiao We haven''t been together for a long time. Xu is very excited. One by one, the train runners from all over the world go inside. "They don''t know, so..." Chu Zixiao wanted to explain. "Nothing." Jane Mo said faintly, "you just came back. I didn''t contact them after you left. They don''t know and it''s normal." "Yes." Chu Zixiao answered and walked slowly with Jian Mo''s steps, "Mo Mo, that..." Before he could say anything, Jian Mo stopped and looked to the other side. Chu Zixiao also saw... Several school leaders and Mo Shaochen accompanied Gu Beichen to have dinner here. Because most of Chu Zixiao''s students are from the Department of law and the Department of finance, most of them showed their admiration when they saw Mo Shaochen and Gu Beichen together. "Have you heard? Mo Shaochen may join the emperor group this time..." "I heard about the bridge built by the school. I heard that the emperor would set up scholarships in the Department of law and finance and donate several large libraries to the school..." There were all whispers around. After a while, they came to a junction. After all, the people from the school, Gu Beichen and Mo Shaochen greeted each other. Gu Beichen went to Chu Zixiao with one hand and took back his sight after glancing sideways. "What''s the matter at night?" It was said to Chu Zixiao. "It''s estimated that I''ll get together outside after dinner. I can''t say." Chu Zixiao replied and explained, "we haven''t seen each other for many years, so we''ll get together." Gu Beichen knew that Chu Zixiao was explaining for Jian Mo, "call me when you''re finished. I''m looking for you." "Well, good!" Chu Zixiao answered. Gu Beichen turned around and went to another box with the school people. Except for that cold look, it was like he didn''t see Jian mo... He completely regarded her as a strange invisible person again. "Zixiao, you can... Unexpectedly know Chen Shao." The fat man has begun to joke, "shit, people have the ability, that is, they have the proud capital. Look, just chenshao, that''s asking our Zixiao''s opinion." Here, except that Tang Yu knew the relationship between Chu Zixiao and Gu Beichen from the beginning, only Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue knew As they laughed, they entered another box. They are all young people, mostly former friends and classmates. After three words, they serve wine... As soon as the wine is drunk, the atmosphere becomes more heated and noisy. The people who didn''t know that Chu Zixiao and Jian Mo had separated continued to joke. Seeing that the two people didn''t explain at the moment, they naturally wouldn''t say anything... Only Li ranxia looked like stirring the water, as opposed to Han Zhenzhen''s constant struggle against Jian mo. After drinking for a while, Jane Mo got up and went to the bathroom... Who knows, she happened to meet Gu Beichen! Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. He just ignored her and didn''t go away. He waited there directly. "Husband, I''m destined for you..." Jane Mo licked her face and went forward, flattering her face. Gu Beichen snorted, "have a good time with your first lover?" The husband called, and he felt guilty at first sight. Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and continued to smile and say, "it''s just a classmate party..." as she said, she added, "well, that''s your nephew. I know the measure!" "Really?" Gu Beichen hissed coldly, "Jian Mo, you''d better know your identity..." he said coldly. Without giving Jian Mo a chance to speak again, he crossed her and left. Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth, slipped a touch of astringency in her heart, and then walked to the bathroom. Just as she entered the bathroom, Han Zhenzhen came out at the corner... Look at the direction of the bathroom and the direction Gu Beichen left. There was doubt on her face. She just heard Gu Beichen''s last warning to Jian mo... Listening to that feeling, the two people seem to know each other. Why did Gu Beichen warn Jian Mo? Was it Jian Mo who led him to be warned, or was Jian Mo one of Gu Beichen''s women, so he was warned? Han Zhenzhen also went to the bathroom. When she went in, Jian Mo was just washing her hands. "Unexpectedly... You and Gu Beichen also know each other?" She said tentatively. Jian Mo frowned slightly, but he recovered his peace in an instant... Han Zhenzhen asked, and it was estimated that he would hear Gu Beichen''s last words when he died. "Is it strange?" Jian Mo Leng hissed, "it''s not surprising to know some big people in Los Angeles who are our architectural designers..." after she took out the paper and wiped her hands, she calmly crossed Han Zhenzhen and wanted to leave. "Jian Mo," Han Zhenzhen turned around, "since you and Chu Zixiao have broken up, why do you make everyone feel that you are either together or want to compound?" Jane Mo just opened the door of the bathroom and stopped because of Han Zhenzhen''s words. She slowly turned and looked at Han Zhenzhen, "you care about me?" She put her arms around her chest. "Han Zhenzhen, why can''t you understand?" Jian Mo was helpless and sarcastic, "it''s not that I don''t let go, it''s that Chu Zixiao can''t let go... It''s better that you have the ability to deal with him, so he won''t pester me, won''t you?" "Jane Mo, you are shameless!" "Yes, I just don''t want face..." Jane Mo sneered. "But what can I do? Men like women who don''t want face... So when you''re more shameless than me, it''s estimated that Chu Zixiao will like you." Then Jian Mo turned and went out... But unexpectedly, Chu Zixiao and Tang Yu were standing at the door of the men''s bathroom... Well, next door! That is, just when the door was opened, she and Han Zhenzhen talked. They both heard... Jane Mo thought, do you want such dog blood?! Chapter 75 What is Chu Zixiao''s mood now? The feeling of love without being ruthlessly trampled on can''t be said... He knows that Jane Mo''s temperament is like this. She refuted it only when Han Zhenzhen angered her. However, in today''s relationship, her retort fell in his ear and hurt people! Tang Yu is a little sullen and looks at Jian Mo strangely... Although Jian Mo was not bullied in the past, he never belittled himself to attack each other. What happened two years ago really hit her so hard? Tang Yu suddenly laughed at himself. It wasn''t him. What he really wanted was a little simple... His relatives fell downstairs and fell on her. They would change their temperament, as if they weren''t so incomprehensible. Jane Mo wanted to say something, but she didn''t say anything at last. It was as if she didn''t meet Chu Zixiao and Tang Yu here and went back to the box The box is still lively. Li Xiaoyue is crazy. This moment''s Kung Fu has been dragged to the pile of men and began to drink. This year, when she first came out of the legal world and came to prominence, she learned wine table culture very well. Things in the bathroom, whether Chu Zixiao or Tang Yu, or Han Zhenzhen who didn''t know they were heard talking, don''t seem to have happened... Everyone continue to happy! Jian Mo finally left early and didn''t tell Li Xiaoyue who had gone crazy. She just stuffed a text message into her mobile phone. I began to look forward to the school day, because Jane Mo was in no mood after a series of incidents. After returning to lanze garden, I threw myself into bed At this moment, Jane Mo''s mind was completely Gu Beichen''s indifferent look and the warning outside the bathroom. She was very stuffy at once. "I haven''t warned you to lower my grade when I go in and out of the hotel and have sex with women..." Jane Mo said angrily, covering her pillow. The heavy breathing sound came from the empty room, and Jane Mo''s heart became more and more chaotic... You can''t find someone to vent. Finally, she simply closed her eyes and began to sleep When I woke up, it was already more than 8 p.m. The starlight and the light of the night lamp came in, and Jane Mo looked around dimly with sleepy eyes. The unprecedented loneliness came at this moment. Took the mobile phone to open, because before it was mute, there were many phone calls and messages on it. Open the SMS, including Chu Zixiao, Li Xiaoyue... And Xiang night. Anyway, there is no gu Beichen. One by one replied to the text message, and finally Jane Mo called Su Junli back. "I muted my sleep at that time," Jian Mo explained first. "Jun Li, what''s up?" Su Junli leaned against the white grand piano on the central stage of the concert hall, his eyes drooping slightly, "tomorrow''s repertoire rehearsal has some bottlenecks. I think you can come and listen..." "You really think highly of me!" Jane Mo sat up. She didn''t know if it was because she was sleeping on her stomach. Her head was a little drowsy. Su Junli smiled. "How can I look down on people who have a relative sense of sound?" Jian Mo was suddenly stunned. In the music industry, the absolute sound feeling is what everyone dreams of having. Unfortunately, it''s natural. The relative sound sense is practiced to some extent, but she seems to be born... It was discovered when she was accidentally kidnapped in the past. "How do you... Know I have a relative sense of sound?" Jane Mo was stunned. "Because I have an absolute sense of sound!" Su Junli slowly opened his mouth and smiled a little deeply. He lied without making a draft, "I saw you in tune with the charity concert that day..." Jian Mo doesn''t doubt it now, because in a sense, the relative sound sense and absolute sound sense exist relatively. Su Junli is also a master of music, and it''s normal to see it. "Do you have time now?" Su Jun asked, as if the voice of Mu Chunfeng was the same as the piano music he played, with a rhythm that makes people pregnant after listening to it. Jian Mo looked at the dark room and subconsciously answered, "well, yes." "I''ll pick you up?" Su Jun asked at the exit. "No, I''ll just drive over..." Jane Mo has got out of bed. "Well, no more than an hour." "OK." Su Jun answered. After Jian Mo hung up, he took his cell phone and walked outside the concert hall. "Adrian, are you leaving?" Asked a staff member. Su Jun kept walking, "go buy a snack." "Haven''t you just eaten for a while?" The staff shrugged and couldn''t understand the musician''s thinking that wind is rain When Su Jun came back from buying a snack, Jian Mo also arrived. "Eat something with me first, huh?" Su Junli asked softly. Jian Mo didn''t notice it at the beginning, but when she saw the sweet night, she felt hungry... She wasn''t polite. Like Su Junli, she sat on the edge of the stage with her legs hanging and took a bowl of porridge. "You haven''t eaten yet?" Jane Mo asked, looking at the pile of food. Su Junli smiled and answered. However, at last, Jian Mo found that Su Junli actually drank a bowl of porridge, and the rest didn''t move, and basically went into her stomach. Jian Mo is a smart man. She suddenly reacted... Su Junli estimated that she had been sleeping and came directly. I''m afraid she didn''t have dinner, so she bought a snack? I bought a snack for her and was afraid she would be embarrassed, so I misled her that he didn''t have dinner Jane Mo felt warm for a while. "If you treat every woman so gently, you''re not afraid that they don''t see other men because of you?" Su Junli smiled, "will you?" Jane Mo was stunned. "I''m a man with a husband..." she said evasively. Su Jun left but didn''t smile. He just went to the piano and sat down and motioned Jane Mo to go over Jian Mo sat down beside Su Jun, and saw his slender fingers like jade gently on the black-and-white keys. "Listen to this song with the help of your relative sound feeling..." "Yes!" When Jian Mo''s voice fell, Su Jun began to drift on the black-and-white keys from his fingers Su Junli is worthy of being recognized as the prince of piano in the world. Whether it is music or skill, he seems to be able to perform, which makes people intoxicated... It seems that he was born for the piano, and the piano also exists for him. A song gracefully and slowly lifted by Su Junli''s hand and then dropped the last scale. The aftersound echoed in the empty concert hall, which was an unspeakable shock. Jian Mo can''t extricate herself from the song just played by Su Junli. It''s not a world famous song, nor is it the track released before Su Junli... It''s a brand-new one. This kind of music shows hope in the light sadness... However, that hope is shrouded by the light sadness and helplessness, which makes people indulge in it, and the two sides can''t stop tearing. "No wonder the media are saying that playing the piano can make people pregnant..." Jane Mo sighed. Su Jun left, smiled and looked at Jian Mo, "so... Did you get pregnant?" Chapter 76 Jane Mo smiled and pointed to her ears, "ears will be pregnant..." Su Junli smiled. The smile gradually spread from the corners of his mouth to the bottom of his eyes, and fainted in his warm eyes... Gradually, it became deep. Because of the angle of sight, Su Jun could just see the mark left by the scar behind Jane Mo''s left ear in the direction she left... Pay attention to her and even promise to give her the design of the small concert hall, all because of this mark. However, he never thought that there would be hidden feelings behind the fact that he didn''t fall in love at first sight and didn''t move at second sight... And they would be hooked out with the contact. Unfortunately, there is a feeling in this world... The wrong time. "Did you hear the problem?" Converging his mind, Su Jun asked faintly. Jane Mo recalled and said weakly, "if the second tone of the fourth bar falls down by half a key... Will it be better?" She said something mildly and not confident. In front of professionals, she seemed to have the feeling of teaching others. Su Junli thought for a moment, and his eyes lit up, "sure enough..." Jane Mo didn''t understand the meaning of his words, but fanned her eyes, "am I... Inappropriate?" "How could it?" After looking at Jian Mo, Su Junli began to play the first half of the song again. After reducing the place where Jian Mo said by half a key, it was more fluent as expected. "Mo Mo, the relative sound sense is really a good helper for the absolute sound sense..." Su Jun smiled deeply from the corner of his mouth. "You have solved the problem I''ve been struggling with these two days." "I wish I didn''t help..." Jian Mo was also infected by Su Junli''s happiness. "I haven''t received any training, you know!" Su Jun left his eyes slightly deep. "Tomorrow, look forward to your whole journey..." he inched his eyes and tail, revealing a touch of teasing, "well, look forward to getting you pregnant in the whole journey!" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she immediately laughed... The haze of the day seemed to gradually disperse at this moment. The next day, Su Jun''s first concert after returning home ignited the attention of all media and people in Los Angeles. "Playing the piano can make people pregnant" piano prince Su Junli not only has musical attainments, but also because he is handsome and gentle, he immediately became one of the men most wanted to marry for Los Angeles women Because Jane Mo''s three tickets were together, when she arrived, Xiang night and her best friend Su Xiaoyan had arrived. When they saw her coming, they "chattered" and gave her the program list. "Sister Mo, sister Mo," she said hurriedly when she saw Jane Mo at night, "VIP is really cool... Ha ha." "Yes, sister mo..." Su Xiaoyan also joined the excited ranks. "I''ll die without regret if I can see the male god so close..." she was almost crying with excitement on her face. Jane Mo chuckled and looked around, then her eyes laughed and motioned Xiangwan and Su Xiaoyan hurriedly covered their mouths, and then they grinned one after another and hurriedly lowered their voices. It''s a concert after all. The people who come here are all music lovers... Xiang night and Su Xiaoyan are a bit like Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue. They came to college together from high school. An architecture department, a music department... Naturally, Su Xiaoyan''s preference for Su Junli is closer. The three chatted in a low voice. The huge concert hall was full of people... Only the VIP position was empty. Suddenly, someone sat down next to Jane Mo in turn. She didn''t care who it was... Anyway, she didn''t know anyone. "Sister Mo, I heard from the staff that it is possible that Su Jun left and added Encore today." Su Xiaoyan came back from the bathroom and shared the good news excitedly. Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and was surprised... Anke has been added before the beginning. Isn''t it possible to add one more song in the end? "Beichen, what are you looking at?" Jane Mo''s body suddenly stiffened. First, she gently fanned her eyes, and then frowned slightly... Why does she seem to have auditory hallucinations? "Nothing..." The low voice came slowly with magnetism, and it was still in my ear! The corner of Jian Mo''s mouth twitched slowly, and she just looked at the sight of Gu Beichen... For a moment, she really felt that she was struck by thunder. After Gu Beichen''s ink pupil slipped a touch of deep meaning, he immediately took back his sight and whispered something with the woman around him Jane Mo''s subconscious vision fell on the woman. At a glance, she knew that the woman was a beautiful woman. The enchanting Phoenix eyes with eyes and tail, exquisite face and decent dress... Have more temperament than any gossip girlfriend of Gu Beichen. This temperament is not dressed up or dressed up. It is born Jane Mo''s heart suddenly tightened, and the feeling was unclear. "Stallion!" Jane morwei pushed the two words out of her teeth, and then hummed in her nose and tilted her head. Although her voice was light, Gu Beichen still heard it... Slightly frowned, slightly invisible, glanced at Jian Mo with his sword eyebrow, and then withdrew his eyes coldly. The woman around her found something sensitively, slightly leaned over and looked at Jian Mo, and then looked at Gu Beichen with questions "Eh, sister mo..." Xiang night''s voice suddenly exclaimed, "how do I feel... The person next to you seems to be Gu Beichen?!" Puzzled, Gu Beichen just turned sideways, and she suddenly widened her eyes, "is it really Gu Beichen?!" I don''t know whether it''s because of surprise or surprise. The voice of Xiang night was a little loud, which immediately attracted the dissatisfaction of people around me I nodded angrily at Beichen and smiled angrily at him! God, she had the opportunity to touch him so close Gu Beichen looked at the flower crazy look on Xiang night''s face. The eagle eyes coldly retracted and said to the woman on one side, "I don''t know!" The woman looked at Jian Mo again. "Really?" "Yes!" The position of Jane Mo''s heart seemed to be hit by someone suddenly... Their voices were not pressed very low, and she subconsciously wanted to listen, but she listened to their words. Oh, I don''t know... Gu Beichen, you are cruel! Jian Mo secretly clenched his teeth and then said to the evening, "I''ll tell you, Gu Beichen doesn''t look like a man of five or six. In fact, he''s a gold and jade in private. He''s one of them... Can he be cultured to listen to the concert? It''s estimated that he can''t recognize all the notes... So don''t be crazy." "Really?" Xiang night was stunned. When he just wanted to say that this person was Gu Beichen, the light "bang" went out. The concert is about to begin. Even if she wants to say something in the evening, she can only suppress her doubts in the end... Listening to the basic cultivation of the concert, Su Xiaoyan taught her well before she came. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep. On one side, the woman leaned slightly to his ear, smiled and said in a voice that only two people could hear: "Beichen..." her eyes glanced at the position of Jian Mo in the dark, "she, won''t she also be one of your gossip girlfriends?" Chapter 77 Gu Beichen snorted coldly and didn''t answer The corners of the woman''s mouth pursed a smile. Feng Mou slightly picked a clear radian without saying anything. She just sat right on her body and looked at Jian Mo in her eyes. It seems that... Beichen really told Yunze that he might be interested in this Jane Mo?! The concert officially began. Before the opening, no matter who''s careful thinking was brought into his piano world by Su Junli... This is an auditory feast. No matter which song, the shock to everyone can not be described simply. "Last night, an inspiration came... I made a song temporarily." When the last song fell, Su Jun said calmly, "because the finished product is too fast, I''m afraid some can''t be accepted by everyone." After a slight meal, thunderous applause came from the concert hall, and everyone supported him in this way Su Junli smiled. "Even this song has a less elegant name." There was an uproar, but Su Junli still kept that smile... His eyes slid slightly and finally landed in one place. From the stage, it was almost dark... But at that moment, Jian Mo strongly thought that Su Junli was looking at her?! Not only did she think so, Gu Beichen also frowned slightly at the same time, with a touch of unhappiness on his cold, carved face. "A temporary encore for everyone," Su Junli''s voice was gentle from beginning to end. When he said this, he raised his lips slightly in the direction of Jian Mo, "pregnant ears..." There was laughter from Shu Lang, without any derogatory meaning... Su Junli''s music can make people pregnant, which is the craziest news in Los Angeles recently. At the moment, Su Junli added such an encore, and everyone could not help looking forward to it Jian Mo stared at Su Junli in a black suit on the stage and sat in front of the white grand piano. His natural momentum was obviously awe inspiring and domineering, but it was comfortable and warm. Let the ear get pregnant... This seems to be what she said last night. Gu Beichen''s eyes fell on Jian Mo''s face, and a pair of obsidian like ink pupils glowed, some sharp and some deep. The cold, carved face gradually had an unknown haze. When Su Jun thought of the music, he looked at the center of the stage and his whole face became darker. The concert was very successful. The people on the scene shouted "Encore" excitedly after listening to "pregnant ears"... But finally, Su Junli didn''t add another encore. An audio-visual feast ended before people could finish. Jian Mo was begged by Xiang night and her Su Xiaoyan to go backstage to see Su Junli Xu was so excited because the last song was driven by everyone that she suddenly forgot that Gu Beichen was right next to her and promised them. "Do you want to go backstage?" Li Jinxi smiled and asked, "just in time, Junli and I have some cooperation to talk about." Gu Beichen answered, got up first and went backstage with Li Jinxi... When they arrived, they saw Xiangwan and Su Xiaoyan talking happily around Su Junli. Jian Mo stood aside and looked at Su Jun Li apologetically. In that way, she was a little helpless in her anger "Adrian..." Li Jinxi shouted. Su Junli was slightly stunned when he saw Li Jinxi, and then looked at Gu Beichen. He frowned slightly and came forward with a sword eyebrow, "you''re coming..." Li Jinxi raised her eyebrows. "There''s no way. Su sanshao has too much face. I can''t come in person." Then she looked at Gu Beichen and said, "Beichen, I''ll talk to Adrian. Will you wait for me later?" "Yes." Gu Beichen calmly answered. Su Jun left to look after Beichen, then turned and looked at Jian mo. although she hid well, he still saw a trace of unhappiness. "Wait for me..." Su Junli said to Li Jinxi and turned to find Jian Mo, "I have something to talk with the brokerage company. Wait for me here and take you to have supper." Then he smiled and looked at Xiangwan and Su Xiaoyan. Jian Mo nodded and thought he didn''t see Gu Beichen Su Junli and Li Jinxi went to a quiet room to talk about things, and the backstage didn''t become quiet because of his departure... There''s no way. Where Gu Beichen goes is destined to attract attention. "Morning and evening..." Gu Beichen glanced sideways at Jian mo. Jane Mo suddenly became angry, "that''s better than some people who hook up three and four..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "why, do you have a long skill? Or do you feel that if you find your next home, your wings will be stiff?" When he said this, Jian Mo sneered, "Chen Shao, what do you mean, why can''t I understand?" Can you explain it to her Gu Beichen''s ink pupil knew well that he didn''t see the bottom. A pair of eagle eyes shot two sharp lights and looked at Jian Mo, "Jian Mo, it seems that you didn''t listen to what I said yesterday." "Chen Shao..." Jane Mo smiled. "Why didn''t I listen? Doesn''t that mean there''s no back door?! I remember..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Before he could speak, he saw Xiangwan and Su Xiaoyan coming... He snorted coldly and leaned forward deliberately. Jun''s face was almost close to Jian Mo''s cheek, and his thin lips gently said in her ear: "tonight... It seems that we need to talk all night!" He bites "talk" very hard, and Jane doesn''t have to think about what these two words mean... The so-called talk is just talking in bed! What can we talk about in bed? "Teng" once, Jane Mo''s face turned red... She stared at Gu Beichen, who slowly got up. She didn''t know whether she was angry or ashamed. After Gu Beichen lightly hooked a cold smile on one side of his thin lips, he turned indifferently and went out of the backstage "Sister mo..." Xiang night rubbed directly against Jian Mo''s side and asked with a warm and ambiguous face, "Chen Shao... What do you want to talk about with you in the evening?" Gu Beichen''s is intentional... He clearly saw them coming towards night, and his voice was so "loud" on purpose! "What can I talk to him about?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "That man is a black belly. He deliberately misunderstood you and didn''t see it?" She rolled her eyes. "Of course, if you don''t want to have dinner with Su Junli, I can ask Chen Shao what he wants to talk to me about in the evening?" Before Xiangwan spoke, Su Xiaoyan immediately tore her away, "Hey, sister mo... Don''t talk to Chen Shao. Let''s stay away from Su Jun and have a midnight snack!" To make complaints about the night''s corners, I can''t see how bestie I have integrity. "Sister Mo, in fact, Chen Shao seems to be very interested in you..." Xiang night said, with a peach heart on his face. After listening to this, Jane Mo couldn''t help thinking of the woman around Gu Beichen, "it''s estimated that it''s a woman. He''s obsessed!" She sneered, turned and walked out, "I''ll go to the bathroom." Xiang night glanced at Jian Mo''s back and asked, "Alas, sister mo... Will you also become Chen Shao''s gossip girlfriend?" Chapter 78 Jian Mo looked at Xiangwan reluctantly... Xiangwan immediately made a posture of pulling his mouth up, then smartly pursed his mouth and smiled and bent his eyelids. After Jian Mo went to the bathroom and came back, she waited for nearly half an hour. Su Mufeng and Li Jinxi finished talking. It was estimated that they had a very pleasant conversation. The smile on Li Jinxi''s face was much stronger than that just now. "Listen to Adrian''s words about inviting everyone to have a snack. If you don''t mind... Count me in?" Li Jinxi asked with a generous smile. The natural Queen''s style exudes a momentum that people can''t refuse. Jane Mo has some little resistance in her heart, but she will not show it on her face after working for so long. Xiangwan and Su Xiaoyan are crazy people. Naturally, they won''t mind "Chen Shao?" Xiang night, the flower maniac asked with eager eyes. Li Jinxi didn''t know whether it was unintentional or intentional. He looked at Jian Mo and then looked at Xiang night, "why, is it interesting to Beichen?" "Teng" once, Xiang night''s face turned red. It''s not really interesting, but the little girl''s thought is always punctured... Unfortunately, it has nothing to do with love. Su Junli walked to Jian Mo, "will it be inconvenient?" He asked intimately. After all, the relationship between the two was not made public, and such an occasion didn''t seem very good. Jian Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth and shook her head. Then she looked beyond Su Junli and landed on Gu Beichen, who was standing at the door with his hands in his pockets at some time Seeing Gu Beichen''s eyes coldly slide over Jian Mo, he left and thought of Li Jinxi, "is it settled?" Li Jinxi raised her eyebrows, "naturally." "I''ll treat you tonight!" Gu Beichen dropped his words, as if to celebrate that Li Jinxi had achieved his wish. Jane Mo slightly left the corners of her mouth, and there was some gnashing of teeth in the fundus of her eyes. Late night snack is in a very high-end western restaurant. The slow piano voice is filled with a soft and comfortable atmosphere in every corner. In this atmosphere, people''s mood becomes much quieter Gu Beichen''s slender fingers gripped the red wine glass and shook it one after another. His eyes fell deeply on the scarlet wine, and there was a vicious but cold radian between his cold and thin lips. "I remember you played the piano for a while when you were young?" Li Jinxi looked at Gu Beichen and said softly. Gu Beichen lightly hooked his lips, and the eagle''s eyes quietly slipped through the night and fell on Jian Mo''s face. The thin lips gently said, "in front of Su sanshao, say I played the piano... Jinxi, are you laughing at me?" Li Jinxi smiled. She was beautiful, and her smile was more elegant and charming. "I don''t..." her Phoenix eyes moved and looked at Jian Mo''s flat face, pursed the corners of her mouth, "I haven''t heard you play for a long time. Do you have the honor to listen to it tonight?" Xiang Wan and Su Xiaoyan have brightened their eyes. Today, they can sit in the VIP to see Su Junli. They feel they have made a profit. Unexpectedly, they can have a snack together... Not only that, but also Los Angeles legend Gu Beichen. If... You can still hear Gu Beichen show his hand, you''ll be making money at Grandma''s house! "Forget it..." Gu Beichen picked up his eyebrows. There was no too much expression on his cold, carved face, but the ink pupil opened slowly, "I''m such a gold and jade, and the people in it are still honest." The self teasing words sounded cold. While Jian Mo frowned slightly, Xiang night also looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously... How do you feel that it was what sister Mo said to her before the concert?! In the end, Gu Beichen didn''t play the piano at last. The night snack of the five people showed little tension from the beginning to the last tension. Gu Junchen looked at Jian Mo, but Gu Junchen left her Gu Beichen smiled on one side of his thin lips, and the ink pupil was completely indifferent to her. Xiangwan and Su Xiaoyan, who don''t understand their relationship here, and Li Jinxi feel that there is ambiguity between them. They want to explore further. Their enchanting eyes slip from Jian Mo and fall on Gu Beichen''s face, with a touch of cunning in the depths of their eyes. Li Jinxi deliberately circled Gu Beichen''s arm, leaned forward slightly and said, "I heard you have collected several bottles of good red wine recently?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly, "you have found the bottle of 1976 Latour you want. Wait for the past blues?" Li Jinxi was a little surprised, "have you found all this?" Her eyes were filled with excitement. "Tom just took it out for auction and took it easily..." Li Jinxi''s face was so excited that she completely forgot that she just wanted to see Jian Mo''s reaction... She was known as "wine maniac" from childhood and collected all kinds of precious wines, especially red wine. Latour in 1976, but she hasn''t found it for a long time No wonder Jane Mo sneered in her heart. What does it mean that she can''t drink when she has to go to work the next day? It turned out that he kept the bottle of Latour for this woman There was an indescribable emotion in her heart. Jane Mo hung her eyes, grabbed the red wine glass in front of her and drank it up. Su Jun Li frowned slightly, looked at the cup in Jian Mo''s hand and wanted to say something, but his lips moved back and forth, and finally said nothing "Sister Mo, you seem to be drinking Su Junli''s cup?!" He opened his mouth to the night weakly, but there was an excited eyebrow in his eyes and joked, "sister Mo, do you... Call it indirect kissing?!" Xiangwan''s original joke suddenly changed the expression of the three people Jian Mo''s mouth twitched and looked at the empty cup drunk by herself. Isn''t it Su Jun''s left? Su Jun looked at Gu Beichen subconsciously and frowned slightly And Gu Beichen''s eyes were already familiar with the bottom. Mo Tong glanced lightly, raised his eyes and looked at his Jian Mo, coldly got up, "Jinxi, go get the wine, and then send you back." He didn''t give the public a chance to oppose. He had already taken the lead in raising his steps and was ready to go. Li Jinxi felt that she was wrong. Beichen wanted Jian Mo very much. It was normal... She was thinking about red wine in her heart. She reminded Su junbei to remember to go to the company to sign a contract, winked at Jian Mo and said, "we often open our best friend to lie down and ask you back. Don''t you mind?" Jane Mo only shook her head as if she didn''t mind the scene. Gu Beichen and Li Jinxi had just walked for two steps, suddenly stopped, looked slightly sideways at Jian Mo and said, "I''ll wait for you in the evening!" Li Jinxi was surprised. Gu Beichen said so, but he saw the ridicule at the bottom of his eyes. He was helpless. This man really didn''t know how to cherish fragrance and jade. Gu Beichen left such an ambiguous sentence, which doomed the tragic end of Jian Mo being questioned by two curious babies Shit, Gu Beichen, you bastard! Jane Mo secretly gnashed her teeth. "Sister Mo, sister Mo, tell me, what''s the relationship between you and Chen Shao... Huh?" Xiang night''s face with colored light completely revealed the meaning of her question, "it''s not easy for me to let Xiangyu participate in the draft comparison... Hey, hey, be honest, sister Mo!" Jane Mo was annoyed by the question and said innocently, "husband and wife relationship!" "Cut..." Xiang night turned his eyes directly, "sister Mo, you and Chen Shao are husband and wife, so I have to be a lover with him... Ha ha!" Jane Mo sighed, "look, I''m serious. You don''t believe it... I can''t help it!" Su Jun left the corner of his mouth with a gentle smile. Looking at Jian Mo, who didn''t believe the truth, he was also very satisfied. He couldn''t help but deepen his smile. Xiangwan and Su Xiaoyan naturally won''t believe it. Quan is joking when Jian Mo is in charge. However, this did not affect their mood tonight. They talked and laughed quietly and sat down for a while, and then they dispersed. When Jian Mo returned to lanze garden, Gu Beichen hadn''t come back yet. She took a bath and warmed herself a glass of milk... Gu Beichen hasn''t come back yet. Look at the time. It''s past midnight. "Tut Tut, is this another time in the country of women''s tenderness?" Jane Mo thought of the woman who only knew that she was called "Jinxi". Inexplicably, she was stuffed in her heart. Jane Mo doesn''t know what nerve she sends. Anyway, when she finds out that she sends text messages, the whole person is not well ¡ª¡ªDidn''t you say we should have a good talk in the evening? If I don''t talk, I''ll go to bed! Chapter 79 Gu Beichen stood outside the operating room of Minkang hospital with his hands in his pockets. His cold, carved face was bloodthirsty and murderous, and his awe inspiring momentum made the surrounding air freeze. When long Xiao and Li Yunze came, they first nodded slightly with Li Jinxi, and then hurried forward "What''s going on?" The Dragon owl asked coldly. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly and then opened, and two startled glares came out from the bottom of his eyes, "if someone wants to stop the M & A case, naturally... We should start from Shaochen first." It was only yesterday that we reached an agreement with Mo Shaochen. Today, he was involved in an accident. It is impossible not to let people think more. "I''ll check..." the Dragon owl said coldly, and the man had turned and left. "Boss long, I''ll deal with it myself." Gu Beichen''s voice showed an unquestionable awe inspiring domineering spirit. When the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly, the cold suddenly appeared. The Dragon owl stopped turning and looked back at Gu Beichen... He saw that his cold, carved face was shrouded in haze. In this world, if you want to survive, no one is completely clean... Besides, if the emperor can dominate in such a big city of Los Angeles, it will not be clean. "Since JK group wants to play, I''ll play well with them..." Gu Beichen hissed coldly and withdrew his eyes coldly. At the right time, a nurse came out of the operating room. When he saw Li Yunze, he was surprised and hurried forward and said, "Li Shao, President Wang said you are invited to participate in this operation." Li Yunze glanced at Gu Beichen, nodded, went to change his surgical suit and came back, "give it to me, huh?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently hooked an arc of trust. After watching Li Yunze enter the operating room, he just slightly lowered his eyes. "With Yunze, the success rate of this operation has increased a lot..." Li Jinxi came forward and said, "Mo Shaochen will be fine." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but waited quietly... If Mo Shaochen had an accident because of the merger, how could he be worthy of his aunt?! The waiting time is always long. The empty corridor is quiet and can really hear the sound of breathing The Dragon owl sat on the waiting chair, his slender legs overlapping at will, and his eyes were bright and cold. Gu Beichen is still standing at the door of the operating room in the posture of just now. With the passage of time, the haze on his face is getting heavier and heavier The sound of "Ding" came suddenly in silence, and everyone''s eyes fell at the door of the operating room... A few seconds later, Li Yunze took off his mask and came out. "Yunze, how''s it going?" Li Jinxi asked hurriedly. "The injury is very serious," Li Yunze said with a dignified face. "I''ve been pushed to the ICU for the time being. If I can wake up tonight, it should be ok... If I can''t survive... I''m afraid it''s a little tricky." He looked at Gu Beichen with a dignified face. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were cold. Without saying anything, he took his hand and turned to the elevator "Boss, do you want to have a look?" Li Yunze opened his mouth with some worry. The Dragon owl didn''t move. "Beichen has discretion!" Li Yunze frowned slightly, "this time Mo Shaochen promised him. You and I all know that he paid back the love to some extent... If Mo Shaochen has an accident, Beichen is afraid he can''t stand it." Li Jinxi looked at Li Yunze suspiciously, "as if... Things are not simple?!" "You''d better do a good job in your media company. What are you worrying about Beichen?" Li Yunze glanced and said. Li Jinxi sniffed lightly, "isn''t it because of Shen Chu that Mo Shaochen promised Beichen? If it''s because of her, why don''t I worry?" The Dragon owl looked cold. "Li Jinxi, now I mention Shen Chu... Do you think it''s appropriate?" Li Jinxi looked at the Dragon owl and looked away. "Beichen is not there again!" "..." Li Yunze was helpless. Sometimes it was really difficult for him to understand what was in his twin sister''s brain. It seemed that her brain circuit was always different from that of normal people. The car, with its arrogance, wandered madly on the streets of Los Angeles, and the street lights and neon lights were immediately thrown behind the car "Squeak -" The screeching sound of the brakes cut through the silence and finally stopped on the Hope Bridge on the Los Angeles River. Gu Beichen got out of the car, stood by the railing and looked at the surging river. The ink pupil was deep and bottomless, just like a Wang ancient pond. While absorbing the dark night, he was in the dark world. Some injuries can''t be touched, as if they would be bloody How many years?! "Beichen, do you know how much courage it takes for me to come back, especially to Los Angeles?" Last night, just by the river, Mo Shaochen and he had a can of beer. His voice said sadly, "I left because of you. Now, because of you, I come back..." "Shaochen, what happened to Xiaochu..." Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and swallowed all his words and beer. "You and ah Chu, are you not firm enough or do you not love enough?" Mo Shaochen said coldly, "Beichen, there are some things I don''t want to mention..." Gu Beichen closed his eyes and his mind was completely what Mo Shaochen said here last night They were supposed to be good brothers who talked about everything. After the little aunt''s family died unexpectedly, they grew up and went to school together... But in the end, it was because of Shen Chu''s break. Night, deep as if to devour all things in the world. Jane Mo curls up on the sofa and doesn''t know when she fell asleep. She still holds her mobile phone in her hand When the East spits out the white belly of the fish, everything recovers, and the dawn shines on her through the clean French window with the first ray of hope, she instinctively turns over behind her and wakes up. With a trace of morning warmth in the quiet space, Jian Mo suddenly sat up and looked around subconsciously... The cold space clearly told her that Gu Beichen didn''t come back last night. Lost? Jane Mo suddenly found that she seemed to rely on him a little more these days... This phenomenon made her frown. He rubbed his stiff neck because he didn''t sleep well. Jane Mo went upstairs to wash and change clothes, went downstairs, made some breakfast, and then drove to the company. Last night was su Junli''s concert. Because of his unprecedented success, he basically contracted the entertainment layout in Los Angeles early in the morning... In particular, the last Encore of "pregnant ears" took Los Angeles as the center and blew a national wind of Su Junli. However, with the wind blowing away from Su Jun, he was revealed to be close to a woman as if he had a unique inertia in China... He had never had any gossip. In a group of photos, because of the tricky angle, almost every one shows an ambiguous atmosphere. Kisses are intimate and even seem affectionate. Suddenly, the whole city began to see the women in the human flesh photos. Soon, they were fixed on Jian Mo, the engineering design department of Xiangyu construction company For a time, as Su Jun left the heat, Jian Mo became a celebrity in Los Angeles! When Gu Beichen saw the newspaper, it was mo Shaochen who survived the dangerous period. He wanted to go back to the company to deal with things and passed through the nurse station. The newspaper originally placed on the table was swept to the ground when someone took something The photo of "kissing" was so stabbed into the depths of the ink pupil Chapter 80 "San Shao, are you dating Jane Mo?" "San Shao, when did you and Jian Mo start? Adrian concert hall is said to have been designed by Xiangyu. Is it also because of Jian Mo?" "San Shao, can you talk about what happened between you and Jane Mo?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± As soon as Su Junli got off the bus, he was blocked there by the media. There was a touch of unhappiness on his gentle face, but it was not obvious. "Jian Mo and I were friends before," Su Junli replied calmly. "The concert hall was handed over to Xiangyu. It was the design drawing produced by Xiangyu... I will reserve the right to investigate the media''s untrue remarks about me and him." Then, his eyes quietly slipped for a week, "I have something else to do. Thank you for your concern." "San Shao," some media moved with Su Junli''s footsteps, "you reserve the right to be investigated by law. Excuse me, do you know a video that someone Po surfed the Internet just now?" Su Junli didn''t pay attention, but continued to walk forward with one hand and a security guard came and began to make way for him. "San Shao..." the man shouted at the top of his voice, "do you know that someone refers to Jian Mo''s intentional homicide?" The reporter walked slowly toward the crime of murder, and then stopped The reporter nodded and directly took his mobile phone to Su Junli Su Junli took over and looked down... The video was not long, but it clearly explained the scene of Jian Mo pushing Han Zhenzhen, and then Han Zhenzhen turning over the railing. With a slight frown, Su Junli returned his mobile phone to the reporter, turned around and entered Li Jinxi''s "dream media". At the same time, he took his cell phone and dialed Jane Mo''s cell phone Jane Mo''s cell phone is busy. She looks at the court summons in her hand and listens to Han Zhenzhen''s cold voice on the phone. Her hands are shaking with anger. "You''re not afraid to do this, because you''re really jealous?" Jane Mo gritted her teeth and hissed coldly. Han Zhenzhen smiled. "I didn''t put the video on the Internet, and I didn''t send the summons, but... Now, I think it''s also good." The Han family is very famous in the legal and political circles. The people in the family are either in the court or in the legal circles. The worst is also related to these two industries Han Zhenzhen said that she didn''t issue the summons. Jane Mo didn''t doubt it. However, she wouldn''t explain the situation at that time. In the video, there is only the part where she pushes Han Zhenzhen and holds her, but there is no behind... Whether it is intentional or not, but seeing her look from the perspective of the video is completely intentional. The most important thing is that Li ranxia didn''t "Have to go to court?" Jane Mo sneered. Han Zhenzhen also smiled. "Originally, I called to persuade you to apologize. If you apologize, I will withdraw the case naturally... Unfortunately, you have backbone." "I didn''t do it. Why should I apologize? If I apologized, wouldn''t I admit that I really ''deliberately killed people?''" Jian Mo sneered, "if you have to see me in court, it seems that I can only eat the first straw again." Then she hung up the phone regardless of Han Zhenzhen''s scolding voice. Because of the affair with Su Jun, Jian Mo has been in a hot spot. Now there are more incidents of "intentional homicide" in the celebration of the University of Los Angeles. Jian Mo has become a celebrity in Los Angeles. The ringtone rang just a few seconds after hanging up Han Zhenzhen''s phone. It was Li Xiaoyue''s. Jian Mo picked it up and listened to Li Xiaoyue angrily say, "I went back to school to watch the video in the corridor. The hard disk was just full, and the back was not photographed." Jane Mo sneered at the corner of her lips, as if she was not surprised by the answer. "If someone wants to make me feel bad, even if the hard disk is dissatisfied, it has to be full." What does she mean? Li Xiaoyue knows very well. In such a situation, she usually plays a lot of lawsuits. Now, it''s hard for Li ranxia to testify... There are judges and juries in court, either the Han family or those who have a good relationship with the Han family... It''s difficult to win when there is no benefit at all. "Girl, do you believe me?" Li Xiaoyue asked. Jian Mo knew that Li Xiaoyue wanted to be her defense lawyer, "I don''t believe you, I''ll eat Xiang!" Li Xiaoyue felt warm for a while. "Well, even if I don''t do it as a lawyer and offend the power of the Han family in the legal world, I''ll let you leave!" Jane Mo has a sour nose. Sometimes there are many friends in life. However, there may be only one or two confidants who can ignore everything for you After hanging up Li Xiaoyue''s phone, I saw the text messages stuffed in, including Su Junli''s and Chu Zixiao''s. Su Junli: call back! Chu Zixiao: I''ll be your defense lawyer in this lawsuit! The content of the two people''s text messages was very short. Jian Mo first sent a text message back to Chu Zixiao, saying that he would let Li Xiaoyue be a defense lawyer, and then called Su Junli back. "It''s bothering you..." Su Junli''s voice was remorseful. Jane Mo smiled. "The media likes to look at pictures and talk. It''ll be all right in a few days." Su Junli was slightly silent, "but if it wasn''t for this thing, maybe... The so-called ''intentional homicide'' wouldn''t appear." That video was only released online at noon. If the other party really wants to, shouldn''t it be released on the school day of Luoyang University, or yesterday at the latest? Obviously, the other party saw that Jane Mo and he were pushed to the top of the storm and added a fire in time! Jane Mo drooped her eyes, "Jun Li, I''ll be fine..." "Are you going to ask Chu Zixiao to defend you?" Su Jun asked softly, "or... You can let Gu Beichen come forward." If he remembers correctly, some aspects of the Han family depend on the emperor. Referring to Gu Beichen, Jian Mo''s heart suddenly tightened For the first time, Gu Beichen said back, but he didn''t. Even today, he was indifferent to such a big scandal about her. Don''t care, so don''t care?! Seeing that Jian Mo didn''t speak, Su Junli then said, "if you don''t want to find these two people, then..." he paused and then said, "can you believe me?" Jane Mo smiled, "don''t tell me, you have not only minor in psychology, but also law." Seeing that Jian Mo was still in the mood to joke, Su Jun slipped a deep meaning from the bottom of his eyes. It was clear that she was involved in many things, but she could still face it with a smile... Such a strong her made him distressed. "I don''t practice law," Su Junli said slightly briskly, "but I can find a good lawyer." The smile from the corners of Jian Mo''s mouth instantly filled the bottom of his eyes, and the warmth that had not been seen for a long time rippled because Li Xiaoyue and Su Jun left "Because I''m a friend, I don''t say thank you..." Jian Mo''s nose is slightly sour. "However, Su Junli, don''t be easy to be good to a person, otherwise... It will make that person dependent." The top floor of emperor group. Xiao Jing knocked on the door with the sorted information and entered the president''s office. "Chen Shao, Miss Jane''s video related information in Luoda is ready..." Gu Beichen didn''t lift his head, and the desk was full of information about the M & A case involved in Mo Shaochen''s accident. "Let the emperor''s lawyer group meet in ten minutes." "OK." Xiao Jing answered and turned to leave. At the moment of closing the door, he looked at Gu Beichen''s busy appearance and sighed. Because Mo Shaochen suddenly had an accident, it was clear that both Chen Shao and the imperial lawyer group were busy. However, after hearing that Jian Mo had an accident, Chen Shao put down his work for the first time. This... Has never happened since Chen Shao took over the emperor! Chapter 81 The oval conference room was silent. The people of the emperor''s lawyer group looked at the first person sitting. They were silent one by one, and the atmosphere didn''t dare to breathe. Originally, everyone thought that this meeting was about the merger and acquisition of JK group, but unexpectedly, it was a "intentional homicide" case that had nothing to do with them. "I need a foolproof plan," Gu Beichen''s cold voice overflowed his thin lips, and the eagle''s eyes coldly slid across the faces of the lawyers. "If you can''t handle such a thing, the emperor won''t raise useless people." The words fell, Gu Beichen got up, turned around without a pause and left indifferently When he got out of the meeting room, suddenly, the people of the lawyer group inside guessed the identity of Jian Mo as if they had blown up the pot. "This woman is really capable. She had an affair with Su Jun, and even the president put down JK for this matter..." "We''re a business debate. Don''t say it''s a small case. Even if it''s a big case, it has nothing to do with us, doesn''t it?!" "Chen Shaofa said, that''s the relationship..." In a word, everyone can only start to study cases quietly. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao drove to Lingfeng international and went directly to Xiangyu on the ninth floor to find Jian Mo, "Xiao Yue is not good at this case." He said bluntly, "foam, don''t be impulsive." Jian Mo quietly looked at Chu Zixiao and smiled. "Part of the reason for this is because of you... If I still ask you to defend, you say... Should I beat Han Zhenzhen in the face or let her retaliate against me more sharply?!" Chu Zixiao frowned, "foam..." Jian Mo sighed, "Zixiao, I will deal with this matter myself. If I really can''t do it in the end, I won''t refuse your kindness... But now, can you stop pushing me to the cusp of the storm?" Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes and endured it. Just then he asked, "did Beichen embarrass you because of the scandal between you and Su Jun?" Jane Mo''s mouth was astringently hooked. Is it difficult? Hehe, he doesn''t even ask... Maybe, he doesn''t know at all. Seeing that Jian Mo didn''t speak, Chu Zixiao frowned, "Mo Mo, Beichen and you..." "Can you stop talking about this topic?" Jane is a little tired. Chu Zixiao didn''t continue, but after a slight self mocking smile on the corner of his mouth, he asked, "I''ll get off work right away and have dinner together, huh?" There was caution in the light voice. Jian Mo looks at Chu Zixiao and subconsciously wants to refuse "Momo, did you break up and even your friends really didn''t have to do it?" Chu Zixiao interrupted Jian Mo''s words, "I just don''t want you to go back and think nonsense alone." Jian Mo''s heart suddenly fell to the bottom of the valley. There was a kind of red fruit that was analyzed and looked the same... Even he knew clearly that Gu Beichen had not returned to lanze garden for many days?! Jian Mo and Chu Zixiao went to a famous Italian restaurant in Los Angeles. Sometimes she felt that when some people couldn''t meet them, they wouldn''t see them for a long time. However, if you don''t want to meet it, it seems that that person challenges your visual nerve all the time. As soon as she entered the restaurant, Jane Mo saw Gu Beichen and Lu man... Lu man was talking with a calm smile. Gu Beichen heard the corners of his mouth rise slightly. Losing the position across the heart, Jane Mo secretly mocked herself... She is just the legal bed that people "buy" back. Why should she let him work hard for her?! Gu Beichen''s eyes moved and saw Chu Zixiao and Jian mo... His cold face was so indifferent that a pair of eagle eyes just slipped over Jian Mo indifferently and took back their sight. Jane Mo only felt cold, but why, she didn''t seriously think about it. Chu Zixiao didn''t expect to meet Gu Beichen here. He was a little annoyed. "I didn''t know Beichen was eating here..." I knew. He casually found a restaurant near your company. "It doesn''t matter!" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows slightly. Chu Zixiao looks at Gu Beichen and finally goes to one side with Jian mo. he can''t touch Gu Beichen and sits down Lu man didn''t know who Gu Beichen saw because she was just facing her back. She just found that he seemed absent-minded when she spoke. Gu Beichen is the one she wants to catch. No matter whether he is really interested in her or the occasional emotion that seems to cherish her memory... Women, no matter how hard they try, it''s better to marry. "Beichen, are the things here not to your taste?" Lu man pretends not to see Gu Beichen''s absent-minded and asks with a smile. Gu Beichen calmly withdrew his sight in the direction of Jian Mo and said coldly, "it''s OK." "By the way, today I pushed the contract at JK..." "Yes." Gu Beichen calmly answered. Lu man supported the table with her arms, looked at the man opposite like an emperor, and said with a touch of playfulness: "I don''t want to be your ''enemy''..." Gu Beichen looked at Lu man with deep eyes. His thin lips just lightly hooked an indifferent radian, and his smile stagnated at the corners of his mouth, not to the bottom of his eyes. The eagle''s eyes were slightly biased, and subconsciously fell in the direction of Jian mo Gu Beichen sneered. Now Mo Shaochen and JK have disrupted his plan, but what is he doing? Unexpectedly, I put down the matter over JK just to help the woman who is ambiguous with Su Jun. How did he forget?! Where does Jane need his help? As a well-known criminal defense lawyer, Zixiao is still her first lover! Even her first man Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly cold, and his whole body overflowed with a cold feeling. The feeling that the little uncle robbed the woman of the nephew and the nephew wanted to rob the little aunt... Made Gu Beichen Junyan full of haze, and the ink pupil was even more vicious. Lu man has never seen Gu Beichen like this before. He can''t help swallowing, "Beichen?" "I have something else to do. I''ll take you back first..." Gu Beichen called the waiter to settle the bill and got up. Lu man looked at the food he didn''t eat much in front of him, and didn''t dare to ask Gu Beichen what happened. He got up and went out of the restaurant with him Xiao Jing drove the car. After sending Lu man back, he accompanied Gu Beichen to Minkang hospital. "Inform the lawyer group that Jane Mo''s case will be ignored first..." Gu Beichen''s indifferent voice overflowed his thin lips. Xiao Jing looked at Beichen from the rearview mirror and answered. Just when he was waiting outside, he just saw Chu Zixiao and Jian Mo enter the restaurant together... Chen Shao came out so soon. I think it should be an internal injury?! Xiao Jing drives the car and ponders Gu Beichen''s mind with evil taste in his heart When he arrived at the company in the morning, he was cold faced, and then he was so busy that he asked him to sort out the relevant materials of Jian Mo''s "intentional homicide", and then left in a hurry... Xiao Jing felt that if Chen Shao wasn''t interested in Jian Mo, he would die. "Chen Shao, have you completely ignored Miss Jane?" Xiao Jing asked clearly, and there was a touch of exploratory smile in the bottom of his eyes. Gu Beichen glanced coldly across the rearview mirror, gently opened his thin lips and said, "I like gossip so much. Shall I send you to be a paparazzi?" Chapter 82 Xiao Jing pulled at the corners of his mouth and didn''t dare to continue to test Gu Beichen Gu beichenjunyan leans to one side and looks at the neon under the busy night in Los Angeles outside the window. The eagle''s eyes gradually become deep and bottomless... He seems to be too concerned about Jian Mo recently. With a "drop", the voice of SMS came from the mobile phone. Gu Beichen took back his sight and took out his mobile phone. It was sent by Li Jinxi. He said that when he asked him to pass through Hualin night market in the hospital, he would bring her a bowl of fried rice noodles. He frowned slightly. Gu Beichen always didn''t understand Li Jinxi''s hobby "Go to Hualin night market." Gu Beichen said coldly. Xiao Jing was slightly stunned. Then he answered and turned to Hualin night market first. Hualin night market is a benchmark night market in Los Angeles. Both tourists and local people love to come here to spend the night. But such people will never include Gu Beichen! Gu Beichen sits in the car and Xiao Jing goes to buy fried rice noodles from the stall designated by Li Jinxi Because there was no parking space near the night market, Xiao Jing parked the car a little far away. Gu Beichen sat in the car alone, opened his notebook and processed some documents in his spare time. After waiting for about half an hour, Xiao Jing hasn''t come back... Gu Beichen emailed Susan the processed documents and closed his notebook. Looking out of the window slightly, the autumn night is already a little bleak... As soon as the wind blows, the old leaves on the ground are swept away. Suddenly, Gu Beichen''s sight fell on a small booth on the side of the road where his photography works were placed... The eagle''s eyes suddenly and deeply fell on a picture placed in the middle. After getting off the bus, Gu Beichen walked to the small stall with a steady but cold step... He leaned down slightly and pulled down the picture from the clip. In the photo, the sunlight penetrated from the middle of men and women, and then put a thin halo on each other''s faces... People immediately felt that the years were quiet. "Do you need photos, sir?" When the girl who set up the stall saw Gu Beichen, she was stunned at first, then glanced at the photos in his hand and said, "I''m from the Photography Department of Luoda. These photos were taken by me... 20 yuan a piece, and the expenses are to fund the orphanage." She explained with a sweet smile. Gu Beichen looked at the girl. "This picture was taken in Luoda?!" Although it is a doubt, it is obviously certain. The girl nodded. Gu Beichen''s thin lips lightly touched a faint smile that seemed to be nothing. The smile was frozen in the corners of his mouth and never spread... It was full of cold ridicule. The girl was a little uneasy when she saw him. "Sir, is there a problem with the picture?" This picture was taken in the study corridor on the side of the law department when she was collecting wind on the campus the day before yesterday... In fact, she didn''t get the consent of the couple. In a sense, she violated the right of portrait... It doesn''t happen that this person knows the person in the photo? The girl thought and became more and more nervous... She really just thought that scene was too beautiful. The man kissed the woman so carefully, and the sun just passed between them. The beautiful one was like a fairy tale. Gu Beichen didn''t answer the girl, but casually took several large bills from his wallet to her, "this photo, including all the equipment with this photo negative and other finished products..." he ignored the girl''s surprise, "I don''t want to see the existence of this photo under any circumstances and places!" The girl looked at the big bills and then at Gu Beichen. She didn''t know how to react for a moment. "Don''t understand?" Light Yi''s voice showed a trace of dissatisfaction, spilled over his thin lips, and Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly cold. The girl nodded subconsciously, and then quickly shook her head Gu Beichen''s ink pupil became vicious and said coldly, "destroy all archived photos that may reappear in front of others. If... I see the existence of this photo again, I will make you regret your behavior." Then he stooped slightly, put the big money in the box with all kinds of photography, looked at the girl indifferently, and turned to get on the car. Xiao Jing hasn''t come back yet. Gu Beichen looks at the photo with Obsidian ink pupil by the light reflected into the car by the street lamp The sun penetrates the two people. They are not familiar people. In fact, they can''t see who they are But the people inside... One is his wife and the other is his nephew! In the photo, Jane Mo is wearing a plaid shirt, carrying a backpack, and her long hair is just tied with a ponytail... Just like the pure sunshine when she was seen on the campus of Luoyang university that day. Depending on the situation... This picture should be before he met them both in Rhoda. Besides this shallow kiss, what else did Zixiao do to her? Is she asleep, or is she just drooping her eyes? When Zixiao''s kiss fell on her face, the shallow corner of her mouth was a smile from her heart... She had never been to him. The slender and powerful hand pinched the photo with a slight force, and the photo was deformed, and Chu Zixiao''s face was distorted There was a sound of opening the door. Xiao Jing bought fried rice noodles and complained, "Miss Xi likes to eat. There are so many people in this shop... No one wants me to be in front of me when I brush my face." "Do you have the face to take it out and brush it?" Gu Beichen put the photos away, and his cold face was still indifferent. Xiao Jing was the person who had been with Gu Beichen for a long time. The atmosphere in the car and the depth of his eyes secretly thought about what had happened in this moment... However, he was also very sensible and didn''t ask. "Hey, hey, when... Of course not..." Xiao Jing grinned. After starting the car, Xiao Jing drove straight to Minkang Hospital... But from the rearview mirror, he glanced at the man in the back seat. The cold, carved face is full of haze. When the neon outside slides through the window and quickly flashes across Junyan, it is dark! ¡­¡­ Jian Mo was a little tired. It was early in the morning when she came home. At that time, she received a call from Li Xiaoyue before she finished her meal with Chu Zixiao. They went to find her together. Then Li Xiaoyue took Chu Zixiao to analyze the whole case. This time, if you want to win... Chu Zixiao''s view is very simple. Impress the judge and jury from an emotional point of view and make them believe that Jane Mo is innocent and has never hurt others. Jane Mo threw the key on the table beside the porch, changed her shoes, and dragged her tired body in After a few steps, Jane Mo suddenly stopped. She first frowned, then turned her head and looked at the sofa... Suddenly, she looked up at the cloudy ink pupils of Gu Beichen. Jane Mo felt that she should not be capricious. However, at the thought of Gu Beichen''s indifferent departure, there were constant rumors in ten days, coupled with Luo Da''s indifferent appearance, and when she saw him talking and laughing with Lu man in the restaurant today, she was just cold when she saw her... She was very uncomfortable. If the brain is controlled by nerves, people often do things they dare not do on weekdays Jane Mo coldly took back her sight and went down. The scandal of leaving Su Jun and the video of "intentional homicide" make her very tired at the moment. "Stop!" Gu Beichen spoke coldly. Chapter 83 The foot that just stepped on the ladder stopped abruptly because of those two words. Jane Mo came to hold the stair fence. Because of the indifferent sight behind her, her hands clenched up consciously. Turning around, I swept away the gloomy mood just now, and there was still a bright smile on my face, "ah Chen... Are you really at home?" She smiled and her voice was very angry. "I just thought I was dazzled and had hallucinations." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly. His eyes looked at Jian Mo sharply and said there Jian Mo has already walked over and circled Gu Beichen''s arm, as if he didn''t see the darkness on his face at all. "I don''t know why, I always seem to have hallucinations today... Ah Chen, do you know that I seem to have met you when I eat at night." Gu Beichen put a sneer on his thin lips, "Oh?" He whispered and looked awe inspiring. "So, I''m not an illusion... Coincidentally, when I had dinner today, I thought I had an illusion and saw you with my first love." The sarcastic words overflow the thin lips, and the deep eyes are full of sarcasm. Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth and then said with a grin: "I made a mistake today. I asked a lawyer... That is, your nephew to talk about the case together?! first love?" She pretended to be confused. "What the hell is that?" Gu Beichen was cold and didn''t believe Jian Mo''s words at all. "Remember the relationship between you and Zixiao... The Gu family can''t afford to lose this face when it messes up the generation!" Then he shook off Jian Mo indifferently and went upstairs. Jian Mo took a puff at the corner of her mouth and felt a cool feeling in her heart... She just frowned slightly and said in a whisper: "how does Gu Beichen know the relationship between Zixiao and me Stunned, Jane Mo stared at the shadow that disappeared in the bedroom door, and her face became a little ugly. Gu Beichen went back to the bedroom and took a bath. He just wrapped a bathrobe and went to the study. Mo Shaochen has woke up. Gu Beichen will not let go of JK''s affairs, but will only make them speed up and wait for death without retreat. Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen go to the study and estimated that she was going to stay today... She took a deep breath and took a bath after suppressing her inner fatigue and those emotions. Downstairs, I personally ground coffee beans and made a cup of coffee... No sugar or milk, Gu Beichen''s favorite. Carrying coffee upstairs and pushing open the open door, Gu Beichen can see writing on the document with a pen in his hand... They all say that serious people are the most charming. As Yan Hao, Gu Beichen is handsome to a new height every minute, which makes people feel ashamed. Gu Beichen raised his eyes after finishing writing on a document. Ying Mou looked at Jian Mo wearing a cotton Nightgown deeply. After glancing at the coffee she was holding, he hung his eyes and his slender fingers danced on the keyboard. Jane Mo was a little boring, but she still came forward and put down the coffee. "You''re busy, I''ll go to bed first..." sipped the corners of her mouth. She leaned forward and kissed Gu Beichen''s cold cheek, "good night!" The sweet smell after bathing with a soft waxy voice stimulated Gu Beichen''s sense of breath, and stirred up his original mood of forbearance and anger... When Jian Mo wanted to wave his hand and turn around without taking away a trace of ambiguity, he pulled her into his arms "Ah", the back of Jane Mo''s head hit Gu Beichen''s chest heavily, and her tears were coming out. "Pain..." Jane Mo moaned wrongfully. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep. When Jian Mo accused him of looking at her, he slightly raised his eyebrows, opened his thin lips, and his low and magnetic voice slowly overflowed, "it will make you more painful later..." Just when Jian Mo reacted in an instant, Gu Beichen had picked him up... And he didn''t go to the bedroom. The sofa specially bought in the study to deal with emergencies became a battlefield. For three days in a row, Luoda saw Jian Mo and Chu Zixiao talking and laughing together. It seemed that there was an ambiguous relationship between her and Su Junli... Coupled with today''s scandal, Gu Beichen was filled with unknown anger. When something happened to Luoda, Jane Mo didn''t think of her husband for the first time. Even if he left JK behind and asked the lawyers to settle her case of "intentional homicide" first. But in the end?! He almost forgot that Jane Mo''s first love was his nephew... The famous criminal defense lawyer in Los Angeles and the United States! Without giving Jian Mo any time to prepare for acceptance, Gu Beichen attacked the city directly... The tortured Jian Mo was angry and opened his mouth and bit Gu Beichen on his shoulder Because of too much force, there was blood gas in his mouth. "Goblin..." Gu Beichen also let her bite, "see blood, happy?" Jane Mo let go of Gu Beichen. Her eyes flickered with provocation, but they were full of the confusion of bath hope. "The women outside can''t meet you?" She was gnashing her teeth, but she didn''t know that she had leaked some emotion. "Every time I come back, I''ll die!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes are deep, and Jian Mo''s little jealousy makes him happy One night, Gu Beichen just vented his anger from the beginning to the end, and became greedy under tenderness "Ah Chen, I''m so tired..." Jian Mo couldn''t bear Gu Beichen''s strong physical strength. Gu Beichen quickly got it outside after a few times and went to the big bathtub to wash it with Jane mo. "what''s the matter with Luoda?" Jian Mo was so tired that she couldn''t open her eyes. She lay lazily on Gu Beichen and let him wipe her with a bath cotton in his palm, "unintentionally, and then framed..." "Why didn''t you come to me when something happened?" Gu Beichen''s voice was a little heavy, and even his eyes were cold. Jane Mo''s eyelids had shrugged and pulled down, and her voice was bleary. "I''m afraid you think I''m annoying..." she said, and her nose was sour. "There are so many women around me. I''ve disturbed your good thing. What if I get dumped and divorce agreement?" Perhaps because of drowsiness and fatigue, Jian Mo''s voice is a little muffled, especially charming. "I pushed her carelessly..." Jane Mo was wronged, and her voice was softer. "In order to hold her, I almost fell down." Jane Mo has closed her eyes, "Han Zhenzhen just doesn''t like me and wants revenge!" She hummed, and her voice was much lower. "Why does she like Chu Zixiao and hold on to me..." Jane Mo is already sleepy. She speaks out subconsciously without thinking. Gu Beichen''s eyes were bright and cold. After a pause, he said in a deep voice: "I''ll deal with this. Don''t find Zixiao..." No one responded. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, a little angry, "do you hear me?" Still no one responded Gu Beichen moved slightly and saw that Jian Mo had breathed evenly and fell asleep Chapter 84 Looking at Jian Mo''s sleeping face, Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep Most of her hair was wet under the fog and the dim yellow light. Gu Beichen knows that Jian Mo is tired. He is a normal man and is still in a vigorous age... She is a woman, and she is an addictive woman. Naturally, he can''t help but have to touch it several times every time. Holding Jane Mo''s soft and slippery body out of the bathtub, took a big bath towel to wipe each other, and then took her to bed Jian Mo slept very steadfast this night. Her familiar arms and arms full of security are like a harbor that can make people stop at ease. In the morning, the biological clock wakes Jane mo. When she first saw Gu Beichen''s firm chin and the slightly rolling Adam''s apple, there was a sweet smell in her heart. "Ah Chen, good morning..." Jane Mo moved her sour body slightly. The picture quickly drew back in her mind... Last night, she seemed to take it for granted that Gu Beichen scrubbed her, and then... Fell asleep?! "Morning..." Gu Beichen''s low voice showed the hoarseness of the early morning, slightly lowered his eyes, looked at Jian Mo''s rich expression and deepened his ink pupil, "what wrong idea were you making early in the morning, huh?" The light voice fell on her head, and Jane Moxing''s eyes moved. "Did I say anything last night? Or... Did you say anything to me?" "When?" "Just..." Jane Mo sipped her lips, "... When taking a bath." Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep, and then returned to calm, "well, you said you wanted to rely on me for a lifetime and let me hold you to bed every day..." That''s what she said?! Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and raised her eyes. "Did you hold me to bed?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered the voice and turned around with Jian Mo''s slight sideways posture. The person had been pressed on her, "help you take a bath..." Wei Dun, his eyes were a little deeper, "help you wipe your body..." then Dun, his eyes were a little deeper, "hold you to bed... How can you thank me well?" Jian Mo turned his eyes secretly and looked up at Gu Beichen''s deep and bottomless eyes. "If I have another morning exercise... I''m afraid I''ll have to go to work in a wheelchair later." She said, but also pitifully fanned her eyes. Looking at her flattering and lovely appearance, Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, bent over her mouth and tossed for a while, "let you go today and punish you in the evening..." Jane Mo had been waiting for Gu Beichen''s attack in the morning, although she knew he got up... Suddenly, she couldn''t react. "Why, I didn''t want you to lose?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows. Jane Mo hurriedly covered the quilt and sat up, "I don''t have..." Gu Beichen smiled on one side of his thin lip, and his sight was deep. Then he turned and went to the bathroom. Jian Mo knew that he had been fooled again early in the morning and said, "President Gu can only think with his lower body. Do the emperor''s employees make it?" Jane Mo fished off the bathrobe on one side and put it on. She muttered Marriage without love is simple, happy or unhappy, go to bed... All problems have been solved! Just... Why do you feel astringent in your heart? ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen sat in the coffee shop. A cup of Vienna was cold, but he didn''t move from beginning to end. Han Zhiyuan sat on the opposite side in a cramped way, and the latte in front of him moved slightly... Many times, he moved the corners of his mouth, but he didn''t dare to say a word. With the passage of time, Han Zhiyuan''s heart has been mentioned to his throat. "Chen, Chen Shao..." Han Zhiyuan rubbed his hands and shook his eyes freely, "today... I don''t know who asked me..." "Who sent Jane Mo''s summons?" Gu Beichen''s voice was calm without a trace of emotion. When his eyebrows and eyes were slightly raised, he emitted a sudden cold light. Han Zhiyuan was stunned at first. After freezing for several seconds, he reacted to what Gu Beichen said. "This matter is less with Chen..." he dragged the end of the sentence, but didn''t go on. Han Zhiyuan is a smart man. Gu Beichen won''t find him and say it for no reason... I''m afraid that Jian Mo has a long relationship with him. Gu Beichen didn''t answer Han Zhiyuan, but the eagle looked at him with deep eyes. Han Zhiyuan swallowed it secretly. The invisible pressure made his heart tremble. "The summons was sent by the old man, and I don''t know who sent it to the old man... Now the old man was angry and asked Zhenzhen." "Oh?" Gu Beichen said softly, still without emotion. Han Zhiyuan said to himself, "it''s not a big deal. It''s really good... I''ll go back and persuade the old man." He said hastily. Gu Beichen snorted, "it doesn''t matter if you go to court, just..." he gave a slight meal and looked at Han Zhiyuan fiercely. "I''m afraid some things can''t be controlled when they fall, but it''s not good." If you mean something, Han Zhiyuan has completely changed his face. If Gu Beichen wants to sue someone, whether it''s money or people, he has everything. Besides, Gu Beichen wants to clean up the Han family. There are many ways... Now no matter what the relationship between Jian Mo and Gu Beichen is, since Gu Beichen comes forward in person, how dare he push and block? "I''ll solve it when I go back..." Han Zhiyuan said hurriedly, "Chen Shao can rest assured that he won''t worry about Chen Shao any more." Gu Beichen made a "um" sound and raised his hand slightly. Xiao Jing clearly came forward and put a document in his hand. Gu Beichen glanced at the document bag with his eyes, and then put it in front of Han Zhiyuan, "it''s a thanks to judge Han." The words fall, others have already got up, indifferent one handed copy pocket, take Xiao Jing to leave. Han Zhiyuan even forgot to send Gu Beichen. He hurriedly opened the file bag and took out the contents with trembling hands... When he saw the contents above, his wrinkled face was excited. After Spyker left with arrogance, Han Zhenzhen came out of the boutique next to the cafe She looked at Spyker who didn''t get into the traffic flow, and then went to the coffee shop to find Han Zhiyuan, "Dad!" Han Zhiyuan has put away the document bag given by Gu Beichen, "HMM." "What did Gu Beichen say?" "Let''s drop Jian Mo''s complaint." Han Zhenzhen listened, and the corners of her mouth were slightly hooked. "Jian Mo and Gu Beichen really have a relationship..." she sneered, "when I was at school, I was a fox spirit. I didn''t expect that now I''m not only involved with Su Jun, but even Gu Beichen came forward for her." "More than that?" Han Zhiyuan sneered and changed his lowliness at that time. "Chen Shao is a big hand for this woman!" Han Zhenzhen looked at Han Zhiyuan with a strange look and frowned slightly, "Dad, won''t you accept bribes?" Her voice was a little frozen, "you are about to take grandpa''s position as Lord Chancellor..." "What are you talking about?" Han Zhiyuan yelled and didn''t explain, "go back and persuade grandpa to withdraw... Your brother has to rely on the emperor now. Don''t have a problem." Han Zhenzhen looked at Han Zhiyuan suspiciously and nodded... She didn''t think about the case at the moment. Seriously, if Chu Zixiao defended Jian Mo, there was basically no chance of winning the lawsuit. But now I know the improper relationship between Jian Mo and Gu Beichen. Hum... It''s an unexpected harvest. Chapter 85 Jane Mo has not been affected by scandal and lawsuit, at least... On the surface! "Mo Mo, this is the design list of this month," Ding Dang put the list on Jian Mo''s desk. "In addition, the director said that your customer service was very satisfied with several design drawings last month!" She blinked, a little excited. Jane Mo smiled, "it''s good to be satisfied... If you can increase your salary, it''s the best!" Ding Dang smiled. "Take more design drawings, and the Commission is also loud when you turn back..." she said, and she changed the topic, "by the way, what''s the matter with you and Su Jun?" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, "just friends... The media like to look at pictures and talk." "..." Ding Dang said, "sure enough, you can''t get involved with famous people, or you''ll be waiting to be told." She sighed deeply. "How sure are you of your lawsuit?" Jian Mo raised her eyebrows. "It''s ok..." she half joked and teased, "isn''t Chu Zixiao an expert in criminal defense? Ann!" Ding Dang pursed his mouth and nodded, "don''t worry too much... I''ll go out to work first." "Yes." When Jian Mo saw Ding Dang go out, the expression on her face collapsed. It''s a lie to say you don''t worry. Even Chu Zixiao said that this video is too chicken ribs Whether it''s Han Zhenzhen or Li ranxia, it''s a little tricky if neither of them comes out to talk. Han Zhen is willing to stand up? impossible! Li ranxia caught the opportunity to toss her. Where would she come out? Besides, as a lawyer, she didn''t come out to help at that time, and she didn''t take the initiative to testify one day... If she came out now, wouldn''t she ask for something?! The cell phone ring suddenly came, interrupting Jane Mo''s thoughts... Took out her cell phone and looked at the call. It was Li Xiaoyue. "Girl, come out for dinner..." Li Xiaoyue''s voice was light. Jian Mo looked at the time and was about to leave work in a few minutes. "The voice was excited... Did you win the lottery or were raped by your favorite male god?" "Happier than winning the lottery... The favorite male god can''t blaspheme." Li Xiaoyue''s voice was cheerful again. "Girl, your tell has been cancelled." Jane Mo was stunned at first, then frowned, "what did you say?" Li Xiaoyue rolled her eyes. "Han Zhenzhen withdrew the notice... The reason is that you are also unintentional. You have a classmate and don''t want to sue. The specific situation will be said at dinner." Jane Mo frowned. Isn''t it still said that she pushed it on purpose?! However, just now I was still worried about the lawsuit, and now I was suddenly told that it was revoked... Jane Mo was naturally happy. He packed up his things, took his bag and walked out. "Where are you?" "Right at the door of your office building... Don''t drive your car. I''ll take you back after eating." Li Xiaoyue''s voice was relaxed because she was happy. "I''ll pick you up tomorrow morning." Jane Mo pressed the elevator to the first floor and didn''t refuse, "OK." Where can Li Xiaoyue wait for dinner? Seeing that Jian Mo got into the car, he gave full play to the characteristics that lawyers can say, "chattering" explained in detail what had just been said on the phone. "I''m surprised." Li Xiaoyue drove the car and looked at Jian mo. "Girl, why don''t you tell Han Zhenzhen?" Jian Mo pondered and thought of what he said when he had dinner with Chu Zixiao last night, "it''s possible that Zixiao went to find her..." Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo again, thought about it, and thought it through. It''s no secret that Han Zhenzhen likes Chu Zixiao... If Chu Zixiao really talks about it, it may be in his face that the matter will be solved, "Alas, in the era of face brushing... Beautiful men''s tricks are more effective than beautiful tricks." Jane Mo shrugged her shoulders. She always felt something was wrong... But she couldn''t think of what it was. The car stopped in front of a French restaurant. Jane Mo looked at the luxurious front face and sighed, "come here for dinner? You have to explain your salary for half a month here." "I''m happy today!" Li Xiaoyue put down his bold words when he had a happy event, "eat casually today, and I''ll pay the bill!" Get out of the car and throw the key to the parking lot. Li Xiaoyue and Jian Mo enter the restaurant. Soft music permeates the restaurant which is not too bright and full of romance The waiter took Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue to their seats. They ordered orders and two glasses of red wine. Before the meal was ready, Li Xiaoyue saw Gu Beichen come in with a woman. "Tut Tut, people are better than others. I''m really angry." "Huh?" Jane Mo is light. "You can catch a traitor when you come to dinner..." Li Xiaoyue coldly hissed slightly, raised her eyebrows and motioned in the direction of Gu Beichen. "Compared with Chu Zixiao''s intentions, your husband''s mind really didn''t fall on you at all." Jane Mo looked back along Li Xiaoyue''s line of sight, and saw Gu Beichen''s side face and the woman around him saying something with thin lips and a smile. "Tell me, why is there so much difference between this uncle and nephew?" Li Xiaoyue said lightly, "Chu Zixiao is clean. Gu Beichen is a rotten peach blossom." Then she became more angry, "no matter what you married for, you are also his wife..." Li Xiaoyue hummed, "well, although the separation between you and Su Jun is not true, it''s ok if he doesn''t care about the ambiguous angle of those photos. What about your case? He doesn''t care about it... Why, let you live and die by yourself?" Li Xiaoyue moved her eyes with Gu Beichen''s back. She didn''t see Jian Mo''s slightly changed face, but the more she said, the more angry she became. Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth. "I have an interest relationship with him..." she cleared up her mood and forcibly pulled back her eyes. "He lacks a wife and I lack money... One is willing to fight and the other is willing to suffer. I have no reason to let him do extra things." "Tut Tut," Li Xiaoyue shook her head and took back her eyes, "did he say that he could exercise his husband and wife obligations at any time during his marriage?" "..." Jian Mo was stunned and said immediately, "everyone needs it, which is also mutually beneficial." She has some Ah Q spirit. "Besides, he has a good face and a great figure." Li Xiaoyue laughed as soon as she heard it, and then leaned forward and whispered mysteriously, "I think what you want to express is... Gu Beichen is good at appearance and rough work, okay?!" "Teng" for a while, Jane Mo''s face turned red and asked angrily, "do your customers know you''re so obscene?" Li Xiaoyue''s enchanting arm supported the table, the back of her hand dragged her chin and looked at Jian Mo, "Alas, the women caressed by men are different... It''s really pathetic for us single dogs." Jane Mo had no choice but to gouge out her eyes. "In other words, Gu Beichen''s work is good. Is that much practice?" Li Xiaoyue asked and looked sideways at the direction of Gu Beichen''s seat. In fact, because the back of the chair is very high, I can''t see anyone anymore Jian Mo also looked subconsciously. A touch of complex emotion slipped in her beautiful apricot eyes. Her voice was a little stuffy and said, "estimate!" Li Xiaoyue said, "fortunately, such a man is only money... If you fall in love, you''ll die. Gossip every day, never heart to heart..." She looked at Jane Mo and sounded the alarm, "women are easy to lose heart if they lose their body. Don''t do anything stupid..." Li Xiaoyue looked in the direction of Gu Beichen again and said coldly, "a man like Gu Beichen can fill in the empty, lonely, cold night and spend the money he doesn''t want..." she warned Jian Mo, "you know, girl?" Jane Mo frowned slightly, and Li Xiaoyue suddenly widened her eyes, "girl, you won''t like Gu Beichen, will you?!" Chapter 86 "How is that possible?!" Jane Mo subconsciously refuted and went back. "It''s impossible. It''s best..." Li Xiaoyue is a lawyer and has a clear mind. "You and Gu Beichen must have no result... You just need to remember two points now!" Li Xiaoyue said solemnly: "one can''t be emotional to him, the other can''t keep his seed." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. Li Xiaoyue glanced at Gu Beichen''s direction and hissed coldly, "if you can''t control these two things, don''t come to me when you cry in the future..." "Well, I''m not looking for you! I''ll squat in the corner and cry..." Jane Mo joked with a smile, but her heart was stuffy. But she didn''t think about it carefully. Before dinner, Li Xiaoyue''s phone rang She picked it up, listened to the voice of the people inside, and suddenly changed her face, "what do you mean?" She listened for a while and then said, "well, if you want to make trouble, make it slowly... If I''m afraid of you, my name is not Li Xiaoyue!" "Pa" hung up the phone, and Li Xiaoyue''s good mood fell to the bottom in an instant. "What''s the matter?" Jane Mo has never seen Li Xiaoyue so indifferent. It feels like the caller has a grudge against her. Li Xiaoyue didn''t answer immediately. She just took a few deep breaths and calmed down the back before saying: "the business of the law firm..." the strange light in her eyes flickered, endured, and said again, "girl, I..." "Do something!" Jane Mo said with a smile, "you and I still need to be polite?" "But you..." "I''ll just take a taxi back. Just come and pick me up tomorrow morning." Jane Mo fanned her eyes and said with a smile. "What a considerate little woman..." Li Xiaoyue reached over and pinched Jian Mo''s face. "I''ll make amends for you when I''m done!" "This is necessary..." "Then I''ll go first." "Yes!" Jane Mo answered and looked at Li Xiaoyue leaving in a hurry, with some doubts in her eyes. Xu is a sensitive woman, or she is too familiar with Li Xiaoyue... She always feels that the phone call is definitely not the business of the law firm. However, everyone has their own private space. If Xiaoyue doesn''t want to say it, it means that she doesn''t know how to tell herself for the time being. Originally, the meal of two people became one person. Jian Mo ate a little boring... She simply took her mobile phone to watch the Los Angeles news while eating. After brushing the circle, I basically talked about the separation between her and Su Jun... Of course, after Han Zhenzhen withdrew the lawsuit, all parties acted as "experts" and analyzed a lot of comments. Looking sideways, Jane Mo looked at the direction of Beichen... Her position can only see his legs and a little side face of that enchanting woman. Jane Mo feels very sad at the moment, which is embodied in As a regular wife, it''s OK to watch her husband talk and laugh with a woman who may be a third child and eat in the same restaurant with herself. Mainly, she''s still alone. Jane Mo lost her appetite and got up and left Walking in the night of Los Angeles, a city that never sleeps, the neon everywhere seems to be Jian Mo''s voice is particularly lonely. Sitting on the flower bed, Jian Mo looked at the front... The traffic flow and street lights painted the busiest scene at night. Looking at all this, her vision gradually lost focus, and there was no focus at all. Someone stood in front of him and blocked his sight Jane Mo frowned slightly and raised her eyes slowly. At that moment, when she looked at the deep ink pupil, she smiled at the corner of her mouth. "Ah Chen, I seem to have hallucinations again!" Jane Mo said angrily. While the fundus of her eyes turned blurred, the corners of her mouth hooked up. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, and the eagle''s eyes were deep and bottomless. It was like a Wang ancient pond. When it was intertwined with ink space, it would devour everything around it. "What are you doing sitting here?" Gu Beichen asked coldly. "Enjoy the night view..." Jane Mo picked her eyebrows nonsense and looked around, "Why are you here?" "I happened to see a stray cat, come down and have a look..." Gu Beichen''s voice showed a sneer, but his cold face was so indifferent. Jane Mo didn''t react at first. When she did, she secretly bared her teeth and began to gossip. Gu Beichen didn''t speak and directly turned her face aside. "Hum!" Gu Beichen snorted coldly, "where''s the car?" "In the company..." "Why are you here alone?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Like the trained child, Jian Mo said quietly, "it''s a pity to have dinner with her best friend... She left temporarily and abandoned me!" At last, she smiled. Gu Beichen naturally knew that she and Li Xiaoyue were together. When they entered the restaurant with Kruis, they had already seen them "Take you back." Gu Beichen''s words fell, and the man had turned and walked to a Maybach parked on the roadside. Jane Mo got up and followed silently... But just when she wanted to open the rear door, Xiao Jing hurried out of the car, turned around and opened the front passenger''s door. "Miss Jane, please!" Jane Mo frowned slightly. Although she was strange, she got on the co pilot. After waiting for someone to go up, she knew that the woman she met in the restaurant in the back seat was also there! What''s going on?! How did she get the same wife as Xiao San?! Although, she seems to be a little blind "King," Kruis raised his eyebrows and looked at Jian Mo, just as she turned to look at her. She nodded slightly with a smile and asked in French, "is she?" "A friend!" Gu Beichen also answered in French, with a faint indifference in his voice. As soon as Kruis heard, he couldn''t help laughing... Mei Mou glanced at Jian Mo lightly, and then didn''t continue this topic, but continued what the restaurant didn''t finish talking about at that time. The two communicated in French, and Jane Mo didn''t understand... It felt like they were talking about her and deliberately used a language she didn''t understand. When the car arrived at lanze Park, it didn''t go in, but just stopped outside Jane Mo pulled a standard smile from the corners of her mouth and turned to Gu Beichen and said, "Chen Shao, thank you for sending me back..." she gave Kruis a warm look in her eyes, and the smile from the corners of her mouth looked at Gu Beichen more. "Have a nice night!" Then, Jane Mo nodded with Kruis with a smile, and then turned to get off. Even her emotions were not revealed from beginning to end. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, "drive!" Xiao Jing looked in the rearview mirror, then answered the sound, started the car, turned around and left "He just... Have a nice night?" Kruis still said in French, with a smile in his tone. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but looked at the distant figure from the reversing mirror and withdrew his sight coldly Kruis wants to return to domestic development from abroad. In addition, he is about to sign a contract with the emperor, which is public and private. Naturally, he wants to do his best as a host. When he sent Kruis back to the hotel, who knows, he met Jane Mo who seemed to have been abandoned by others on the roadside... At that moment, he knew he shouldn''t stop, but he couldn''t see her so pitiful! "Tut Tut, you said... As soon as I returned home, I was thought to have an affair with you. Is this... Really good?" Kruis raised his eyebrows, but this time it was said in Chinese, "king, since they have been misunderstood... Why not," she circled Gu Beichen''s arm and leaned forward. The waves in front of her chest seemed to be unintentional, but unscrupulously rubbed against him, "you accompany me in the hotel tonight, huh?" Chapter 87 Gu Beichen frowned at the moment, and his cold face was completely indifferent, "let go!" The cold voice instantly frozen the narrow carriage, and a touch of disgust showed on the angular face. It''s as cool as Kruis''s curly hair! It''s as cool as before Gu Beichen''s Mo Tong glanced coldly at Kruis. "About the contract between the emperor and you, you go to the company directly to find Susan tomorrow..." after a slight meal, he said, "also, I don''t want Shaochen''s things abroad to come out of your mouth." Kruis smiled, charming and moving, "king, there is no airtight wall in the world!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly cold and deflected to look at Kruis, "isn''t it?" He was light, and there was a look of arrogance all over him, "but I just want to keep it from coming in!" Kruis slightly frowned at Gu Beichen, opened his mouth slightly because of consternation, and finally frowned and said, "I will only feel ridiculous when others say this, but what you say... I really want to believe it." Gu Beichen took back his sight and just looked out of the window The car slides past the department store in time. The news about Emperor Group''s acquisition of JK group is playing on the superstar screen outside. "Man''s world, you shouldn''t be involved." The voice of Beichen is to live a good life Kruis felt a little uncomfortable and wanted to say something, but finally his lips moved and said nothing. Gu Beichen sent Kruis to Feitian hotel. He didn''t get off. "Don''t you go up and sit down?" Kruis asked with enchanting eyebrows. "No," Gu Beichen said indifferently, "have a rest earlier." Kruis didn''t insist, but charmed hooked the corner of his lips and smiled, "OK... Good night!" Then she leaned forward, gave Gu Beichen a polite cheek kiss, got out of the car, stepped on the ten centimeter high thin heels, twisted her electric buttocks and entered the hotel. "Go to the hospital." Gu Beichen calmly took back his sight and opened his mouth. Xiao Jing answered and drove to Minkang Hospital On the busy roads of Los Angeles, the neon lights on both sides of the road quickly ran away... Converging into a dark color under the smoothness. "You go back." Gu Beichen spoke coldly as he got off the bus. Xiao Jing knew that Gu Beichen was in a bad mood at the moment, but he didn''t know whether it was because of the words behind Kruis or because he found Jian Mo on the road at that time. "Yes." Xiao Jing answered and gave Gu Beichen the car key. Then he took a taxi and left the hospital. Gu Beichen went to the VIP ward. Mo Shaochen woke up this afternoon. Li Yunze checked it himself. Fortunately... It''s OK. "How do you feel?" Gu Beichen looked at Mo Shaochen deeply and asked. Mo Shaochen slightly hooked a thin almost invisible smile on the corner of his mouth, "if you don''t solve the problem, you can''t die..." Gu Beichen frowned, "how can JK compare with you?" Mo Shaochen smiled deeply, but with a touch of bitterness, "at that time, I heard Jinxi say... You used extraordinary means to JK?!" Although it is a doubt, it is obviously certain. Gu Beichen has a cold temper. From small to large, he won''t pay any more feelings except for those he considers to be friends and family. Such a person is too mean and cold-blooded! "They caused traffic accidents. Shouldn''t I pay back?" Gu Beichen sneered coldly, "since they don''t want to, they just force me to do it." Mo Shaochen remained silent. As a lawyer, he knew how Gu Beichen drifted away from the edge and gray area of the law. If you do well, just in case Mo Shaochen gradually frowned and was silent for a while. He just said, "I''m fine..." he sighed and looked up at Gu Beichen. "JK is afraid it can''t be forced. After all, once I appear in court this time, they will lose more than just the right to operate." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Mo Shaochen sharply. He thought clearly, "I won''t be soft hearted because he is Xiaochu''s father!" Mo Shaochen only felt that the position of his heart was severely pinched, and the pain almost suffocated him. After pulling the corners of his mouth, he said with an astringent smile: "he... Has never been a daughter!" The ward suddenly fell into silence. Against the breath of dead silence, the "wow" voice of the ambulance outside the hospital was particularly treacherous. No one likes to come to the hospital. No matter serious illness or minor pain, it can always give people inexplicable dignity. The woman, covered with blood and hair, lay on the emergency bed and was quickly pushed to the operating room. Her messy hair covered her face, but her eyes penetrated between her hair and were full of death and despair. When Jian Mo received the call, she just opened the door and was ready to enter the house. When she heard that Li Xiaoyue was sent to Minkang hospital, she was so scared that her face turned white However, she didn''t drive and couldn''t get a taxi at lanzeyuan. Reluctantly, she had to call Chu Zixiao. "What''s going on?" Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo, who was very white, and asked. Jian Mo swallowed it secretly, looked at Chu Zixiao dully and shook his head. He was very sad, "I don''t know... I received a call from the ambulance and said that Xiao Yue had been shouting my name before she was unconscious..." Chu Zixiao stretched out his hand and gently stroked Jian Mo''s cheek, "don''t worry, it''ll be fine." Jian Mo nodded with a heavy heart and subconsciously accepted Chu Zixiao''s comfort... As if the peace of mind that had not been seen for a long time at that moment came back. When they got to the hospital, they hurried in While waiting for the elevator, Jane Mo never felt that time had passed so long. Li Xiaoyue''s family moved abroad when she was admitted to the University of Los Angeles. She didn''t like going abroad and stayed in Los Angeles after graduation... Now there are few friends who can really make friends here except Jane Mo, a best friend who grew up from childhood. Looking at Jian Mo''s trembling hands because of waiting and anxiety, Chu Zixiao silently passed by... She grasped her trembling hands and said calmly: "don''t be nervous, it will be fine, huh?" Jane Mo let Chu Zixiao hold her hand, just looked at him and nodded with her lips. "Ding" came, and the elevator arrived. At the moment when the elevator door opened, Chu Zixiao took Jian Mo''s hand and went in. Jian Mo then reflected that her hand was held by Chu Zixiao. She looked down at the place held and shook her God for a moment. The elevator door closed slowly. At the moment when it was almost closed, someone outside pressed the up button, and the elevator door opened slowly again At the moment of opening, Chu Zixiao was stunned by Gu Beichen''s eyes. Gu Beichen had no emotion on his indifferent face. The eagle''s eyes dropped slightly and fell on the hand held by Chu Zixiao and Jian mo. then he raised his eyes and looked coldly at Jian Mo, "it seems... It''s my illusion again this time?" The cold voice spilled over the thin lips and showed a dangerous chill... It was like a hammer hitting Jian Mo''s heart! Chapter 88 At first, Jian Mo lowered her eyes. When she found that there were fierce eyes, she subconsciously raised her eyes and looked up at Gu Beichen''s sneering eyes She instinctively wanted to break away from Chu Zixiao''s hand, but she didn''t know whether he held it too tightly or her strength was not enough. She didn''t break away at once. Chu Zixiao let go of Jian Mo with a touch of self mockery in his heart, looked at Gu Beichen calmly and asked, "Why are you in the hospital so late?" Mo Shaochen''s accident and hospitalization were completely blocked by Gu Beichen. Except for the people involved, almost no one knew. "Come and see a friend." Gu Beichen calmly opened his mouth and stepped into the elevator. The narrow elevator car gradually showed a strange smell after the elevator door was closed. That smell made Jian Mo''s heart heavy and didn''t know how to deal with herself. Chu Zixiao looked back at Jian Mo, who was standing silently in the corner with her eyes pursed. "Xiao Yue had an accident and was in surgery, mo..." he paused slightly. He then said, "she doesn''t have a car. I just want to come over, so I stopped by to pick her up." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, just pressed the number of VIP floor The sound of "Ding" came, and the elevator reached the operating room floor. Jane Mo took a deep breath, pursed her lower lip and pulled the corners of her mouth to say hello to Gu Beichen, but after seeing his cold face, she didn''t know what to say and walked out of the elevator. "I''ll have a look..." Chu Zixiao''s heart also became heavy. After saying something, he followed him out. Gu Beichen slightly hooked a touch of coldness on one side of his thin lips. When the elevator door was closed and the hurried backs of the two people were gradually pulled into a line, the eagle''s eyes were already dark. At this moment, Jane Mo was in the mood to take care of what Beichen thought. She hurried and hurried to the door of the operating room. Looking at the light still on, her heart hung up. At that time, she felt something was wrong with the phone at dinner, but she didn''t think of it. After leaving... Li Xiaoyue went to the hospital. When a nurse came, Jane Mo grabbed her quickly, "Hello, I''m Li Xiaoyue''s friend. I want to ask... What''s the matter with my friend and why did he enter the operating room?" The nurse was confused by Jian Mo''s urgent questions. When she reacted, she asked, "Oh, are you the friend of the female patient with accidental abortion?" She didn''t pay attention to Jian Mo''s stunned expression, "by the way, you go and go through the hospitalization procedures." "What are you talking about? Accidental abortion?!" The nurse nodded, then turned around and took something into the operating room. Jane Mo was frozen in place and couldn''t react for a moment. She was stunned by the nurse''s sentence "accidental abortion". Chu Zixiao stared at Jian Mo, "I''ll go through the formalities first. Are you OK here alone?" Jane Mo looked blankly at Chu Zixiao and nodded with her lips, "thank you..." Chu Zixiao smiled astringently and then turned to go through the admission formalities of Li Xiaoyue. If he could, he didn''t want her to thank him at all, just like before... She took what he did for her for granted. The time in the waiting becomes particularly long. Jian Mo sits on the waiting chair, and her beautiful face is completely covered with dignity. Finally, the "in operation" light went out Jane Mo stood up at the first time. After a while, she saw the doctor and the nurse come out... Behind her was the hospital bed of Li Xiaoyue, who was still sleeping. First, she looked at Li Xiaoyue. Her face was pale and there was no blood at all. "Doctor, how''s my friend?" The doctor took off his mask and looked at Jian Mo in his eyes. Finally, his eyes fell on Chu Zixiao. "How did you do as a man? She broke the endometrium due to abortion... Do you want to have children in the future?" Chu Zixiao was embarrassed by the cold scolding, but he didn''t explain. He just asked, "how''s she...?" "The inner wall of the uterus is damaged. I''m afraid it''s difficult to conceive in the future." The doctor said coldly, motioned to the nurse, turned and left. Jian Mo and Chu Zixiao accompanied the nurse to push the hospital bed to the ward. In the dark night, the atmosphere in the ward was particularly depressed. "Just..." Jane Mo pursed her lower lip, "I''m sorry." "Mo Mo, do you have to be so alienated from me?" Chu Zixiao was helpless. Jane Mo lowered her eyes and then said, "it''s good to have me here. Go back..." "I''ll stay with you," Chu Zixiao refused. "If something happens later, how can you handle it here alone?" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, "isn''t Gu Beichen in the hospital?" Chu Zixiao was astringent when he heard this... Yes, Beichen is in the hospital. What right does he have to stay with her? "I crossed again..." Jane Mo raised her eyes and sighed without much explanation. Some things hurt people more and more. "Can you keep it a secret about Xiaoyue?" Chu Zixiao nodded slightly, "I understand..." he looked at Li Xiaoyue, who was sleeping quietly. "Then I''ll go first... If there''s anything, you''ll call me, huh?" Jane Mo nodded and sent Chu Zixiao out of the ward... Just in time, she saw Gu Beichen coming with his pocket in one hand. "Beichen..." Chu Zixiao said hello. "Gone?" "Yes!" Chu Zixiao answered and looked back at some cramped Jian mo. after astringently hooking the corner of his lips, he nodded with Gu Beichen and crossed him to leave. After Chu Zixiao walked away, Jian Mo and Gu Beichen didn''t make further moves. A child with drooping eyes is like a child who has done something wrong. Her eyes are deep and bottomless, as if she was enjoying her appearance at the moment. "You..." Jane Mo broke the silence after all. "Has your friend finished reading it?" "Yes." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "that... I was afraid at that time, so..." "Is this an explanation?" Gu Beichen is light. Jane Mo fanned her eyes, nodded pitifully, and looked like "you have to believe me, what I said is true". "Why don''t you call me?" Gu Beichen asked aloud. Jane Mo lowered her eyes and whispered, "there are beautiful women in your car. Where are you in the mood to talk to me?" She was complaining, but there was a little sour in her words. Gu Beichen''s original calm mood brightened in an instant, but Jun''s face didn''t show, "yes, I shouldn''t send you when I see you on the road at that time..." Jane Mo suddenly raised her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen angrily. Gu Beichen hissed coldly and didn''t speak again What he was thinking at the moment was that if he didn''t send Jane Mo back at that time, she could get a taxi on the street and wouldn''t be with Chu Zixiao! Jane Mo secretly bared her teeth, looked at Beichen all over, and slightly tilted her head to one side. "Are you going to be here in the evening?" Gu Beichen asked. "Xiao Yue has no one to accompany..." Jian Mo''s voice is a little angry. "That''s just..." Gu Beichen suddenly leaned forward. "I won''t go back tonight... Otherwise," he deliberately paused. When he saw Jian Mo curiously expanding his pupils, his thin lips were shallow, and his low and magnetic voice slowly overflowed his thin lips "Why don''t we try the hospital? See if there will be a new high tide on the hospital bed... Huh?" Chapter 89 Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen in surprise. Her mouth kept moving. Finally, she blushed and said with gnashing teeth: "Gu Beichen, you... You... Rogue!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently raised and wiped a faint smile like nothing. A pair of conspiracy was as deep as the sea, tightly condensed Jane foam, and asked vaguely in his voice: "why, do you want to do with your wife... It''s also a rogue?!" "..." Jane Mo''s face turned more red. She knows that Gu Beichen has never had a face or skin when she is alone with her, and has nothing to do with the overbearing President... But it''s two people in bed or no one else''s home! At the moment in the hospital, he, he... Should say such obscene words! Jian Mo''s face was redder when Gu Beichen looked at her in the open bath. She was already pretty, and her skin was pink under the incandescent lamp. At this moment, her face was red, just like the delicate plum fruits that were ready to be picked. "I''m too lazy to talk to you!" Jane Mo said with gnashing teeth, turned and entered the ward. In private, she and Gu Beichen are so coquettish and sticky. It''s in private space... She doesn''t have the cheek to say this in public. After Jane Mo went in for a while, she found that Gu Beichen didn''t come in... She forbeared. She pretended to close the door of the sick room and looked at it. Well... Where else is Gu Beichen in the corridor?! Jane Mo murmured and closed the door of the ward. There was a loss of discontent in her star eyes. Sitting on the sofa, Jian Mo quietly looked at the pale Li Xiaoyue and felt heavy... Because it was Chu Zixiao''s hospitalization procedures, the separate ward was particularly quiet. When was Xiaoyue pregnant? Mainly... Who''s that man?! Was that the man who called?! Listening to the doctor''s tone, it is obvious that Xiaoyue had an accident, so she had an abortion and the endometrium was damaged at the same time. Jane Mo''s heart became more and more heavy, and even the whole was shrouded in sadness On weekdays, Xiaoyue is always careless. She never thought that such a thing would happen to Xiaoyue. In the quiet ward, with the nerves sweeping Jane Mo, there were too many doubts. Coupled with the lonely and scared palpitations, the corners of her mouth couldn''t help laughing at herself. Suddenly, there was a light noise from the ward door, and Jian Mo looked at it subconsciously Originally thought it was a routine room patrol by medical staff, but when she saw Gu Beichen, she was slightly stunned, "didn''t you leave?" Gu Beichen hissed coldly, put his notebook on the tea table, and then put a food box in front of Jian Mo, "so eager for me to go?" Jian Mo looked at the food box and notebook. She knew that Gu Beichen was going to be here with her. She couldn''t help warming up for a while... Even the fear under the loneliness and worry just now was swept away. "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo''s nose was slightly sour, so she came forward and circled Gu Beichen''s arm and put her head on his shoulder. "Are you going to stay here with me at night?" She asked with certainty, saving herself from being amorous. "Yes." Gu Beichen just answered coldly in his throat. Jane Mo was very moved at once. "Ah Chen, it''s very kind of you..." she got up and said ''Baji'' on Gu Beichen''s cheek. Gu Beichen was still expressionless, but the pair of ink pupils gradually became deep, and the deepest part of his eyes overflowed with a smile, "hello? Hum, I''m afraid you''ll give me a green hat!" "..." Jian Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth, let go of Gu Beichen, and then turned her mouth to eat supper. Seeing Jian Mo''s angry appearance, Gu Beichen gently spilled a thin smile on his thin lips, which was very light, but immediately reached the bottom of his eyes, "regardless of public or private, stay away from Zixiao." Jane Mo pretended not to hear. She just opened the lid and her eyes brightened... It was sesame oil wonton. "Although elder sister and her husband won''t be bored to watch gossip news... Others don''t know your identity, they do." Gu Beichen continued to warn. Jane Mo ignored and took the spoon and began to eat. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Seeing that Jian Mo was iron, he ignored him and stopped talking... He opened his notebook and began to deal with business. At that time, because Li Xiaoyue left, Jian Mo was not in the mood and didn''t eat much. I didn''t feel hungry just now, but when the aroma of sesame oil small wonton was pungent, I suddenly relaxed because of my nervous mood, and I really felt hungry... In a moment, she ate the bowl of small wonton clean. After finishing cleaning up, Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen staring at the computer and knew he was dealing with business without disturbing him Just, subconsciously, I looked at him and forgot. I just stared at him all the time. Gu Beichen was very relieved to deal with the work. At first, he could be serious, but in the end, Jian Mo''s eyes were so red. He was a ghost at ease! "If you don''t mind cheering up with me in the ward... I don''t mind if you continue to seduce me!" Gu Beichen''s low voice showed the magnetic overflow thin lips under the dark mute, and a pair of eagle eyes looked at Jian Mo with burning heat. Jane morxin looked away quickly, "I didn''t look at you again!" "Did I say you were looking at me?" Gu Beichen is light. "..." Jane Mo grinned at the corner of her mouth, secretly scolded her idiot and simply didn''t answer. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo deeply for a while, and finally converged his sight and continued to work JK''s case is already imminent. The court session is scheduled to be held in half a month. He will not delay it any more. Whether it''s in the open or in the dark, JK... The emperor is bound to win! Jane Mo didn''t go to see Beichen again. She just glanced secretly occasionally Gu Beichen at work was much more charming than usual. Jian Mo was afraid that she would lose her mind again. Finally, she simply took out her mobile phone to have fun. After playing for a while, the doctor on duty came in for routine examination Seeing Gu Beichen sitting there, he was stunned, but he soon recovered his calm and began to check Li Xiaoyue. "Doctor, how''s my friend?" Jian Mo asked hurriedly when she saw that the doctor had finished the examination. The doctor''s face was a little dignified. "The physical damage is relatively large, and we will have a detailed examination tomorrow... However, it is difficult to conceive in the future. Even if you are pregnant, it may cause habitual abortion, which is inevitable." Gu Beichen has put down the computer and got up. "Is there a way to solve it?" "Chen Shao," the doctor said hello and replied, "in the later stage, it can only be maintained, but what effect can be achieved? One depends on the individual and the other depends on luck." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, looked at Jian Mo with sad eyes, and then said, "no matter what medicine you use... You can adjust what you don''t have at home from abroad, and the account is recorded in me." The doctor was slightly stunned, and a strange light slipped through the bottom of his eyes. He nodded and said, "a woman''s uterus is the most direct symbol of women. Abortion is very harmful to women..." the doctor pointed out, "even taking contraceptives is sometimes fatal to women." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. The doctor also looked at Gu Beichen, flashing advice in his eyes and said solemnly: "necessary defense measures... In fact, sometimes it is necessary!" Chapter 90 Gu Beichen''s face became darker, and it was shrouded in haze. At first, Jane Mo didn''t know what was going on, but later she understood... Feelings. The doctor on duty thought that Xiaoyue''s abortion was related to Gu Beichen?! Ha ha Jane Mo smiled in her heart. Because she endured it, her face was twisted. If Li Xiaoyue is not lying in the hospital bed and the person misunderstood is not her "husband", she estimates that she can make a good dig at Gu Beichen later. At that time, the surgeon misunderstood Chu Zixiao as Li Xiaoyue''s man, and now the doctor on duty misunderstood Gu Beichen... Jian Mo suddenly felt that the doctors in this hospital really had a sense of justice. The doctor on duty gave a good account and left. Before leaving, he didn''t find the dissatisfaction on Gu Beichen''s dark face. "What do the doctors look at here?" Gu Beichen said coldly. Jane Mo snorted, "that''s your usual lacy news. It''s not surprising that doctors think so." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, "why, don''t you mind me and Li Xiaoyue?" He snorted coldly, "otherwise, I''ll go back and settle the charge." "Good!" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth. Gu Beichen''s eyes are familiar with it, "why, don''t you mind?" Jane Mo PI fanned her eyes with a smile. "If Xiao Yue is willing to follow you, I''m willing to make way!" "Not afraid there is no high cost of living?" Gu Beichen was light, and Jun''s face was full of ridicule. Jane Mo looked innocent. "There''s no way. Who can make Xiaoyue a best friend... Her husband can make her!" Gu Beichen stared coldly at Jian mo. after looking at it for a while, he coldly took back his sight and went back to the sofa. He took his notebook and continued his work just now, ignoring Jian mo. Jian Mo was also joking. He didn''t expect Gu Beichen to be angry. After leaving the corners of his mouth, he sat down on one side, his arm supporting the armrest of the sofa, and his sight fell on Li Xiaoyue If Xiaoyue wakes up and knows that it''s difficult to get pregnant in the future, isn''t it very sad? Thinking of the man who made her pregnant and possibly miscarried her... Jane Mo''s heart "rubbed" lit a flame. The night is getting darker and darker. Because of the time difference, Gu Beichen is watching the opening of the stock market in Europe and America Jian Mo lay on the armrest and didn''t know when she fell asleep. In addition to the uniform breathing sound in the whole ward, there was only the sound of Gu Beichen occasionally hitting the keyboard. The autumn night was already a little cold. Gu Beichen looked slightly at Jian Mo, who frowned because he didn''t sleep well, and couldn''t help frowning Put the computer aside, Gu Beichen took off his suit first, then gently moved Jian Mo over, put her head on her legs, and covered her with the suit. Xu Shi''s familiar breath lingered. Xu Shi was more comfortable than just now. Jian Mo turned slightly and put his legs directly on the sofa. His little hand gripped Gu Beichen''s shirt, and then completely slept to death. Jian Mo slept comfortably, but Gu Beichen knew what a stupid thing he had done. He patronized and thought that Jane Mo had just slept uncomfortably and completely forgot... She would appear in such a position at the moment. The little hand clutched the corner of the shirt he choked in his suit pants. Because she turned over, her face was facing his body Warm breath, sprinkle the shop, and make his skin crisp and numb Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was stiff and stretched. He felt he deserved it... Knowing that his body could not resist Jian Mo, he asked for trouble. Well, solve it yourself... No! Jane foam on his leg I want to take a cold shower and calm down... No! Jane foam on his leg "Alas..." Gu Beichen heaved a sigh and said helplessly, "some people are heartless and heartless. You can only bear it." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo sleeping soundly with deep eyes. He suddenly remembered what the doctor said at that time that contraceptives also hurt his body, and couldn''t help frowning. When the night goes by, Jane''s throat will turn white The goal is Gu Beichen''s handsome chin. He falls asleep on the sofa. Even so... He is handsome every minute and has no friends. Jane Mo frowned suddenly. First, she found that she slept on Gu Beichen''s leg... Then, she found that Gu Beichen''s big palm was placed on her chest like that! It''s nothing When Jian Mo felt a weak smile in her eyes, she slowly looked away... She saw Li Xiaoyue pale, but smiled at her maliciously. Just like doing bad things, Jane Mo quickly stood up as soon as she opened Gu Beichen''s hand. Gu Beichen was directly awakened by her actions and immediately frowned. Some of his angry eyes looked at Jane Mo darkly. "Xiao Yue, you''re awake!" Jane Mo couldn''t care about embarrassment. She hurried forward and asked, "is there anything uncomfortable?" Li Xiaoyue shook her head with a bad spirit, looked at Jian Mo and Gu Beichen, and asked at the bottom of her eyes. "When I came to the hospital, he happened to be seeing friends in the hospital, so he was here with me." Jian Mo explained with a deep sigh, "when I received the phone yesterday, you scared me to death..." Li Xiaoyue smiled bitterly, "girl, I''m sorry." "What nonsense?" Jane Mo stared, then rang the call bell and asked, "who made you like this?" Li Xiaoyue looked astringent and didn''t speak. "I''ll go first," Gu Beichen said calmly at the right time. "Let Xiao Jing come and take you back to wash." Then he looked at Li Xiaoyue and said, "let me arrange a nurse." Jane Mo felt warm again for a while. She pursed her lips, nodded, and said, "thank you, husband..." Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, nodded slightly with Li Xiaoyue, turned and left... He knew that he was there, and even Jian Mo couldn''t ask anything. Gu Beichen had just left the ward when he saw Li Yunze coming face to face "I haven''t heard of any surgery you need to do in person at this time!" Gu Beichen sneered. Li Yunze smiled. "I heard..." he looked at the direction of the ward. "You have a big woman''s stomach?" "..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. The hospital belongs to Li family. Li Yunze will know that he is in the hospital all night. He is not surprised at all. "Take care of your people." Gu Beichen spoke coldly, then walked to the elevator and planned to go up to see Mo Shaochen and return to the company. Li Yunze entered the elevator with him, "what''s going on?" "Jane Mo''s best friend." Gu Beichen explained calmly. Li Yunze slightly raised his eyebrows, "so... Are you accompanying Jane Mo?" There was a trace of ambiguous doubt in Qingyi''s voice, and even the eyes looking at Gu Beichen became deep... It felt like guessing the starting point of his company all night! Chapter 91 Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze with a slight frown, and then took back his sight and walked out of the elevator when the elevator "Ding" sound came He didn''t answer Li Yunze''s doubts. Some things just go with the flow. It feels good to be with Jane mo... If you have to have a woman around you, in fact, she is the first choice who is obedient and can relieve fatigue. Of course, if you rule out that she and Zixiao are always a little ambiguous! Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen''s cool and handsome face and smiled. Among the four, Nannan and Xiaoxiao were childhood sweethearts, but Gu Beichen was really ahead. He had been married for nearly two years. "Is next month your wedding anniversary?" Li Yunze suddenly asked, "if you think it''s good, do you have any plans to make it public?" Gu Beichen suddenly stopped, the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly, and then returned to indifference. Without saying anything, he went to Mo Shaochen''s ward. Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen''s back, sighed and opened his mouth lightly: "Beichen, there are some things that should be forgotten, let go, or make a decision early. Why bother yourself?" Gu Beichen still didn''t answer. He walked forward slowly with a steady and powerful step... But his lonely back showed a touch of incomprehensible sadness. ¡­¡­ "Come on, what''s going on?" Jian Mo looked at Li Xiaoyue and asked without saying or discussing. Li Xiaoyue was silent for a while, and then he came to me "Remember when I went to Donghai on business two months ago?" Jian Mo nodded, "there''s a case to collect data over there..." Li Xiaoyue nodded with a pale face, "the man and I are the intersection of that time." She lowered her eyes. "I was drunk that night, so..." Jane Mo immediately frowned, and her heart tightened suddenly. "He..." gave a slight meal and suddenly solidified her eyes, "are you unknowingly?!" Li Xiaoyue laughed at herself. "Shit, he''s strong!" Jane Mo was immediately angry. "I didn''t defend that case at last..." Li Xiaoyue said the root of the problem, and there was a strange emotion in the depths of her eyes. Jian Mo knew about it. It was strange at that time. She thought it strange that Xiao Yue gave up her defense halfway. "Is that man''s company?" Although it is a question, Jane Mo has affirmed, "I remember what kind of electronic company?" Li Xiaoyue tilted her head slightly. Even her red eyes were few. Her eyes were moist Jane Mo didn''t continue to ask, but leaned over and held Li Xiaoyue. "Yue, it''s all right... Everything will pass." She said so, but she had secretly gnawed her teeth. The corners of Li Xiaoyue''s mouth are completely bitter, and her tears are hot, winding down from the corners of her eyes, stinging her heart. "Girl, you know... I wanted to sue him several times!" As a member of the legal profession, Li Xiaoyue knows how to ruin that man. But in the end?! Those photos and videos will flow out. What should she... Do?! Jane Mo went to work with a fire in her heart. She held the mobile phone in her hand as if it were an enemy... She pinched it "quack" because of her strength. Xiao Jing looked at Jian Mo from the rearview mirror. Seeing her gnashing her teeth, she couldn''t help feeling sorry for the mobile phone The car stopped at a place tens of meters away from Lingfeng international. Jian Mo thanked and got off. As she walked forward, she was still talking in her mouth. Xiao Jing looks at Jian Mo''s back and twitches at the corners of her mouth... I don''t know if she has been with Chen Shao for a long time. Occasionally, she will overflow the danger of bloodthirsty under Chen Shao''s trick. Jane Mo was reading about Li Xiaoyue in her heart. She always felt that it was really a loser to eat dumb. She couldn''t help but look down and send a text message to Gu Beichen. "Ah Chen, please help me find out which electronic company in Los Angeles got into a material dispute two months ago Gu Beichen''s message came back soon: what about Li Xiaoyue? Jane Mo quickly replied: Yes! Yeah! Gu Beichen looked at the text message and could imagine Jian Mo''s dog leg at the moment: sadistic man, let me help you! Jane Mo was stunned. She didn''t expect Gu Beichen to say the words "slag man" in such a fashion. She immediately imagined Gu Beichen, who was cold and arrogant, sitting in a high-end and high-grade office and typing these words. "Tearing things is not suitable for the president. You''d better give me the information!" Gu Beichen replied with one word: Yes! Gu Beichen''s efficiency was absolutely rapid, but in half an hour, the other party''s ancestors and background were all found out. He stuffed the information into Jian Mo''s mailbox at once. Jian Mo looked at the background of the scum man and suddenly felt ridiculous... Such a soft man dared to Huohuo her best friend?! Jane Mo holds the mouse. The whole person is so angry that he doesn''t know how to think. The mobile phone ring came at the right time. With a gnashing of teeth, Jane Mo didn''t see who was calling, so she directly picked it up, "hello?" There was a silence on the phone, and then came Gu Beichen''s calm and powerful voice, "I''m afraid you can''t come forward..." he looked at the video just sent back from the computer, his eyes were deep, "I''ll deal with it." Jane Mo frowned. "Why?" "Why do you need to vent your anger for your wife?" Gu Beichen picked his eyebrows and took it for granted. Something burst in Jane Mo''s heart. It was the filling feeling of satisfaction that she put down her anger in an instant "But..." Jane Mo''s voice was a little muffled. "Can you make sure that Li Xiaoyue''s reputation is not damaged and let him taste the consequences?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo was silent. She didn''t have the ability at all. "No..." she shrugged and pulled her shoulder. "Yes!" Gu Beichen replied, "go to your class at ease and accompany your best friend. Just leave the rest to me." Jane Mo smiled, "thank you, honey... You''re the best!" "Well, you know what''s best about me!" Gu Beichen''s voice suddenly had a faint mute, "go back to compensate me for being so busy at night and deal with your business... Think about how to repay me." "..." Jane Mo was speechless and shouted in her heart: Gu Beichen, can you stop everything and think of going to bed at last, okay?! Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes are deep and bottomless... The palpitation of Jian Mo''s breath spread there last night suddenly made him fantasize about the palpitation under her small mouth. After hanging up, Gu Beichen pressed the inside line and let Xiao Jing in. "Chen Shao?" Gu Beichen resumed his usual indifference, took a note and wrote down the slag man''s company, "if I remember correctly, this company also participated in this electronic bidding case?" Xiao Jing took the note and looked at it. As an all-round special help, his brain is just a mobile computer. "Yes, he even pressed the budget very low, which hurts people." "Let him do..." Gu Beichen said calmly. "The reputation of this company needs to be investigated." Gu Beichen''s thin lips slightly raised an evil radian, showing his bloodthirsty under the danger, "no problem... How can I kill him?" Xiao Jing knew clearly that although he didn''t know why Gu Beichen would deal with a small company, he still asked, "Chen Shao, what degree do you want?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes became familiar and cold, "commercial fraud... I want him to never turn over!" Xiao Jing was shocked. Some didn''t understand how Gu Beichen was so cruel to a small company Chapter 92 Now that the boss has told him to put a small company to death, Xiao Jing believes that a small company like Jinyang can only wait for death! If there is nothing wrong with the company, there may be a little trouble, but Jinyang had a material dispute lawsuit before, and now wants to kill it all at once. For Xiao Jing... There is no challenge at all. Just "With a treacherous look on his face... Say, what''s the ghost idea?" Susan put Kruis''s contract in front of Xiao Jing, glanced at his computer screen and frowned, "Jinyang Electronics?" Xiao Jing raised his eyebrows and nodded. "This low-income company... Should not be in the eyes of your Xiao tezhu?" Susan had arms around her chest and a look of "quick and honest". Others thought Xiao Jing was just a special help, but she was around Chen Shao, but she knew that Xiao Jing was assigned by long Shao In public and private, the foundation is dark! Absolute and Chen Shao can be described as "collusion". Xiao Jing couldn''t stand seeing Susan''s calculating face. "Look at you, no wonder there''s no man chasing after you for so many years..." he snorted coldly. Just when Susan was about to get angry, he hurried to say, "this is what Chen shaorang did." Susan immediately raised her eyebrows. "What''s going on?" Xiao Jing opened his mouth slightly. When Susan''s interest was raised to a peak, he said innocently, "I don''t know!" "..." Susan stared. Xiao Jing smiled, "I guess it has something to do with Miss Jane!" He has a confident face. Susan frowned and glanced slightly... Through the frosted glass, Gu Beichen couldn''t see anything in his office. "Tut Tut, I think Miss Jane''s chances of being completely righted are getting bigger and bigger..." Susan said, and suddenly her face was slightly dignified. "It''s just... Chen Shao really put down Miss Shen?" He shrugged his shoulders completely. ¡­¡­ Jian Mo looked at the 3D drawing of the club frame secretly asked from Xiao Jing. His left hand supported his left cheek and his right hand kept turning with a drawing pen... He was thinking about the design drawing, but suddenly his mind turned. Had known Xiao Jing was so talkative, she should have looked for him from the beginning, not the bird! Thinking of Gu Beichen, Jian Mo''s thoughts were more and more separated... There was an unknown smile at the corners of her mouth, which spread across her cheeks and filled the bottom of her eyes. Jane Mo, who fell into her own thoughts, didn''t hear what the gossip women in the office were talking about "Women don''t rely on men, too, okay?" Ding Dang, with a hook in the corner of his mouth, opened the magazine and pushed it to the public. "Li family daughter, daughter of a famous family in Los Angeles, self created dream media... It was officially listed in the United States a few days ago!" When they looked down, they saw that women were enchanting and domineering, and a pair of Phoenix eyes looked arrogant... How many men were ashamed! "It''s her!" He gave a cry to the night and opened his mouth wide. Unexpectedly, it was the woman who appeared with Gu Beichen at Su Junli''s concert that day "Eh, do you know?" Ding Dang was stunned. I was a little proud when I turned my lips to the evening. "I just watched a concert together... And then I had a supper together. Hey hey, I don''t know..." Xiang night said that as women with paparazzi characteristics hidden in their bodies, they all projected more than one kilowatt of sharp and hot eyes at her "Be frank and lenient!" Ding Dang winked. Mo Xiaoya smiled insidiously, "resist pickpocketing!" "..." Xiang night immediately held his clothes in his hands, "I''m a minor!" The corners of their mouths suddenly twitched and turned their eyes, but they didn''t let Xiang night have a chance to escape the possibility of extorting a confession, "be honest!" Xiangwan looked at Jian Mo pitifully. Seeing that Jian Mo was staring at the computer and laughing, she didn''t hear what they were saying. Her eyes brightened and hurried to say, "I confess..." after she roughly said what happened that night, she added, "I seldom said to sister Mo that night to have a good chat in the evening!" "Huh?" Everyone looked at Jane Mo with a sigh in their throats. Ding Dang immediately asked, "Mo Mo, I''ve wanted to ask you for a long time. What''s the relationship between you and Gu Beichen... Say it quickly!" Jian Mo was suddenly shouted. Looking at Ding Dang''s "ferocious and evil" appearance, his thoughts had not turned around, fanned his beautiful big eyes, and said innocently: "husband and wife relationship!" "..." everyone was silent. Jane Mo reacted to what she said. She thought it was too late to defend. She could only continue to pretend to be innocent and emphasize: "really, Gu Beichen is my husband!" "..." the corners of their mouths twitched. Ding Dang "tut tut" shook his head twice, "Mo, you won''t... Have paranoia?" "..." Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth and didn''t defend or admit it. Look, she knows that these people don''t believe the truth. "Alas, women... Being beautiful is good." Ding Dang sighed, "with such a good skin bag, Mo can have such a good ''husband'' as Gu Beichen..." Suddenly, several women laughed, and even Jane Mo couldn''t laugh. After a while of joking, Jian Mo saw that she was going to work, so she simply didn''t continue to think about the design drawings... Anyway, she still had some time to participate in the draft. After work, Jian Mo drove to the hospital to see Li Xiaoyue. When it arrived, Chu Zixiao was also there, and the atmosphere in the ward was a little dignified. "What''s the matter?" Jane Mo frowned and looked back and forth on her two faces. Li Xiaoyue''s face was still a little pale. She pursed her lips and said, "I decided to sue Yang Ziyu." Yang Ziyu is the scum man who strengthened Li Xiaoyue, the vice president of Jinyang electronics. Jian Mo''s eyebrows wrinkled tighter, looked at Li Xiaoyue in doubt and asked what. "I told Zixiao..." Li Xiaoyue laughed at herself. "Zixiao decided to be my defense lawyer!" "..." Jian Mo felt a little uncomfortable, not because Chu Zixiao also knew about Li Xiaoyue, but because Li Xiaoyue decided to say it and send Yang Ziyu to court. "Can you wait?" Asked Jane mo. Li Xiaoyue and Chu Zixiao both looked at her Jane Mo pursed her lower lip corner, but her bright but indifferent star eyes overflowed with complex light. "Gu Beichen said... She wanted to help me abuse..." the corners of her mouth twitched, paused slightly and said, "he said he''d fix it!" Chu Zixiao frowned at the moment. Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo in amazement. They didn''t seem to react "You mean Beichen wants to intervene in this?" Chu Zixiao asked in a dignified voice. Jane Mo nodded and looked at Chu Zixiao. He thought she knew. She seemed to have some information, "is there anything wrong?" Chu Zixiao frowned more tightly and just said one thing, "before Beichen officially took over the emperor, there was a large decoration company that went bankrupt in three days because of his word!" After a slight pause, he continued: "finally, the boss of the company couldn''t accept the fact that he drove into Beichen with his wife and children..." Chapter 93 In shopping malls, the law of the jungle is a normal thing... Mergers and acquisitions of large companies often make small companies unable to survive and gain a foothold. However, Chu Zixiao''s mention of this matter is definitely not aimless... Even the last car collision with Gu Beichen should not be a simple solution. He is a lawyer. It''s inconvenient to say a lot of things Li Xiaoyue is also a lawyer and knows the truth. Jane Mo is very smart and definitely not a vase. What''s more... She knows Chu Zixiao, and naturally she won''t think of it as simple. When she was in the ward, she became dignified, and Jane Mo frowned... What if Gu Beichen used extraordinary means to touch the law? However, if she goes to court, how will Xiaoyue live in the future?! She is a lawyer. After this, people who come to her to file a lawsuit in the future will look at her with colored glasses... Even some male clients will have some ideas they shouldn''t have. The doctor''s routine room inspection interrupted Jian Mo''s thoughts. After checking Li Xiaoyue, he said that the temporary recovery was ok, but he still needed to be hospitalized for observation for a few days. Gu Beichen found a special nurse. Jian Mo didn''t have to worry too much about no one to take care of her... She stayed with Li Xiaoyue for a while and watched Li Xiaoyue finish dinner before she was ready to leave. "Let me think about it," Jian Mo said calmly. "Xiao Yue, you said... Don''t give up yourself at any time." Li Xiaoyue''s nose was sour in an instant. She got up slightly and opened her arms. She saw Jane Mo stooping down and hugging her, "girl, thank you... By my side!" Jane Mo gently stroked Li Xiaoyue''s back, signaled her peace of mind, and then let her go. Chu Zixiao left together. When he went to the parking lot, he asked, "have dinner together?" Jane Mo shook her head and thought, "I want to make sure what he wants to do... I don''t want Xiao Yue to fall into such a dilemma, but I don''t want him to do anything for me." Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo, and there was an unknown worry in his eyebrows. He laughed at himself and didn''t ask again. He just nodded and motioned, "be careful on the road." Jane Mo pulled the corner of her mouth, "well, you too." Then she turned and went to her car. All the way, she was thinking about what Chu Zixiao said. Jian Mo didn''t know whether Gu Beichen planned to use extraordinary means this time, but she felt a little palpitation. Back to lanzeyuan, Gu Beichen didn''t come back, and Jian Mo was not in the mood to eat. He simply turned on the TV and watched it casually. The minute hand turned round and round. Gu Beichen didn''t come back when the needle slipped past 10 p.m. In fact, such a situation is very normal. It''s just that Jane Mo is eager to know the answer. Instead, she feels that he doesn''t come back, which makes her a little upset. Jane Mo took her mobile phone and sent a text message to Gu Beichen: will you be back tonight? Gu Beichen didn''t reply to the text message. Jian Mo took the remote control and adjusted the station again. Finally, she fell on the interview with Su Junli on LTV TV "Has Adrian ever had a girl?" The host asked in a routine. Su Junli looked at the camera with a smile, just like watching Jian Mo on TV, "yes." The host smiled, "is it convenient to reveal what kind of girl it is?" Su Junli pondered slightly. When he raised his eyes again, he looked at "Jian Mo" sharply. "She is very beautiful and strong... Mainly very kind." The host looked at a touch of astringency on Su Jun''s face and asked, "this girl must be very happy if she can make Adrian like her?" Su Jun looked back at the host with a smile. "Whether it''s people, things or things... You don''t necessarily like them, you must take them for yourself. In fact, as long as you see that the other party is happy, you will be happy." The host grabbed the public''s favorite emotional line and talked with Su Junli all the time. Su Junli didn''t seem to be very taboo about this, but there was a trace of caution in his words. He said a lot, but there was not much real value. After the interview, Jane Mo turned off the TV and planned to go upstairs to take a bath and sleep. She estimated that Gu Beichen would not come back. After taking a bath, Gu Beichen went to bed at night. What he had to do was exercise. When he didn''t have him, what he had to do was play with his mobile phone. Jian Mo found that Gu Beichen replied to the text message and hurriedly opened it: busy, don''t return! This is the first... And the second! Mr. G: if you''re bored, you can watch small films. Jane Mo didn''t react for a moment, and hissed coldly replied: what little film do you watch? Gu Beichen replied quickly this time: island film, watch the film length and posture! "..." Jian Mo blushed and scolded angrily, "Gu Beichen, did you smoke your forehead by your lower body?! that''s what you think all day... Hooligans!" Jane Mo decided to sleep and didn''t discuss the "posture" with the man. Turn off your cell phone, turn off the lights... Lie down and close your eyes. Jane Mo had something hidden in her heart. She couldn''t sleep. She turned left and right. I don''t know how long it took. She fell asleep slowly "Squeak -" "Bang!" The harsh sound of braking came at night, suddenly and sharply breaking the silence until the car was hit by the isolation belt, as if everything had calmed down slightly. The sound of "tick, tick" is particularly heavy in the silence. The fuel tank has been deformed due to the fierce collision and is overflowing with gasoline. The air was filled with the pungent smell of gasoline, and only the introverted and luxurious Spyker breathed the breath of death in the open land. At the right time, a big car came and stopped not far from Spyker. The man carefully looked at the Spyker that was deformed by the collision, and then dared to move forward with an emergency light in his hand Looking at Xiao Jing lying unconscious on the steering wheel in the driver''s seat, Gu Beichen''s head hit the car glass! Because of the violent collision, the glass broke from the center to the four sides, and the blood stained on it, just like the manzhushahua in the dark night, enchanting... But with the smell of death. The man looked at this scene, his eyes overflowed with cold and treacherous light, which was filled with the excitement of bloodthirsty murderous gas. "Gu Beichen, you want to kill me... I''ll make you die!" The man gritted his teeth and then took out the lighter in his pocket to light it, and then threw it over! A loud bang came. Suddenly, the black mushroom cloud with the fire light that lit up the ink night was particularly spectacular on the highway in the suburbs. The man looked at this scene "ha ha" and laughed. He looked at the exploding and burning luxury car like crazy, and his eyes were full of vicious light. "Gu Beichen, I let you die without a whole body... Ha ha..." "Ah --" After Jian Mo screamed, she suddenly sat up. In the dark, her face was very white, her forehead overflowed with fine beads of sweat, panting, and her eyes were completely frightened. Secretly swallowed, Jane Mo flustered opened the quilt, turned on the bedside lamp, and then went to get the mobile phone Because she was too nervous and afraid, she didn''t hold it firmly at once, and her mobile phone fell directly to the ground. Fortunately, the quality of the mobile phone is good. Jane Mo tried to stabilize her panic, picked up the mobile phone with the battery separated from the back shell, installed it and turned it on Obviously, it only takes more than ten seconds to start up, but Jian Mo seems to have waited as long as a century. After starting the machine, he hurriedly dialed Gu Beichen''s phone "Sorry, the number you dialed cannot be connected for the time being. If you need to leave a message, please leave a message after the ''drop'' tone..." There was a soft and sweet voice from the mobile phone, and Jane Mo''s face became bloodless in an instant. Her eyes began to turn red. She hurriedly dialed again, but she still couldn''t get through. "Don''t even drag my shoes downstairs..." Gu Chen couldn''t even choke. Jane Mo seems to have forgotten to think, but instinctively wants to go out and find She almost pushed her hand back into the door when she had inertia. The moonlight and night lights leaked in from the outside. Gu Beichen stared at his pale face and sweat beads on his forehead. Jian Mo, whose eyes were red, frowned slightly, and his tone suddenly sank, "what''s the matter? What are you going to do in this ghost look at night?" Chapter 94 Jian Mo''s eyes became more red in an instant. She was stunned for a few seconds and then came forward... Under Gu Beichen''s staring eyes, she stretched out a ghost claw and pinched him on his handsome face! "Hissing" spilled over his thin lips, and Gu Beichen''s face was instantly darker than ink space. Jian Mo''s nose suddenly became sour. When Gu Beichen wanted to speak, he suddenly hugged his waist, put his cheek close to his heart, and listened to his powerful heartbeat, which was unprecedented satisfaction and happiness. Gu Beichen originally wanted to sneer at a few words, because Jane Mo suddenly threw herself into her arms and choked back, and then took her in her subconscious long arm. "Ah Chen, I just thought you..." Jane Mo''s words came from her chest, but she stopped talking halfway. Gu Beichen waited for a while. Seeing that she didn''t intend to say, she had to change her shoes while holding the "koala." what do you think of me Jane Mo looked up slightly, her eyes were clear and said, "I thought you had done too many bad things and had been unlucky..." "..." Gu Beichen twitched uncontrollably on one side of his thin lip, then ruthlessly pulled Jian Mo away and walked upstairs. Jane Mo followed up, "I just had a dream..." she described the dream again. Gu Beichen stopped to enter the bedroom, turned around and looked at poor Jian Mo sneered, "do you think everyone is as stupid as you?" The implication is that your brain can only dream of such a retarded plot! Jane Mo stared with hate and then complained with dissatisfaction, "I can''t get through to you when I wake up..." "There''s no electricity." Gu Beichen spoke, and suddenly his steps stopped again. He leaned to look at Jian Mo, who followed suit. The eagle''s eyes were deep, "are you concerned about me?" There was a touch of complex emotion in Qingyi''s voice. Even Gu Beichen didn''t notice it. Jane Mo naturally wouldn''t admit it, but said coldly, "it''s better for me to worry that I won''t have any living expenses in the future than worrying about you." Gu Beichen suddenly looked cold. "Who just forgot to wear shoes and wanted to go out to find me?" "..." Jane Mo was exposed and quickly retorted, "I want to go downstairs to drink water. When I heard the sound of opening the door, I thought it was a thief. I went to have a look." Then, in order to express that what she said was true, she deliberately raised her chin and looked provocative. Gu Beichen sneered, and the mockery overflowed from the depths of the ink pupil... That feeling was the instant feeling of "why didn''t you cry foolishly by yourself". Jane Mo''s face began to harden, so she watched Gu Beichen go to the bathroom It was almost two o''clock in the morning. Jian Mo was angrily lying in bed and suddenly felt that she was very stupid in front of Gu Beichen, as if her IQ had suddenly dropped to a negative number. Gu Beichen went to bed after taking a bath. Jian Mo deliberately stayed away from him because she was angry... When he saw it, he hissed and directly turned his back to her. Late at night is supposed to be a good time to sleep, otherwise... It''s mostly for communication in bed. Two people are the first time in late night bed, the same, bed, different, dream! The atmosphere was once dignified. Jane Mo had something hidden in her heart. In addition, she was awakened by a nightmare and didn''t feel sleepy at all. After enduring for a while, Jian Mo finally turned around and whispered, "ah Chen..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen is indifferent and light. Jane Mo endured and took the initiative to hug Gu Beichen behind him, "ah Chen, what are you going to do with Xiaoyue?" Gu Beichen paused slightly and just said, "don''t you leave it alone?" Jane Mo drooped her eyes. She felt that Gu Beichen knew what the scum man did to Li Xiaoyue. "I heard something a few years ago, so I had a nightmare." "Yes." It''s cold in Beichen. Jane Mo pursed her lower lip, "will you..." she wanted to find a compromise wording, but she found that Gu Beichen was really not smart. She could only twitch the corners of her mouth and say the second half of the sentence, "... Do... Illegal things?" Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes. The eagle''s eyes knew the bottom and said coldly, "why, I''m afraid to implicate you?" Jane Mo frowned, "I''m afraid you''ll die!" She said angrily. With that, she was so angry that she released Gu Beichen directly, turned around and went there again... She couldn''t have a good and pleasant chat! The body was suddenly fished into his arms by his long arm. The familiar breath and strong chest are the benefits of Jian Mo in the past two years "Jane Mo, you care about me!" Gu Beichen said seriously, feeling a soft warmth in his heart. Jane Mo Leng hum, "I''m concerned about the gold Lord!" Gu Beichen frowned and faintly answered, "HMM." Suddenly, there was an unspeakable blockage in Jian Mo''s heart, which pressed her heart. Some of them couldn''t breathe. They didn''t know whether it was because of Gu Beichen''s attitude or because he agreed with her. After a moment of silence, Gu Beichen said, "in this world, if you want to stand on the peak... No one can say that you are completely clean." Jane Mo didn''t answer, but her ears had stood up... But after waiting for a long time, she wasn''t waiting to take care of Beichen. The discontent "rubbed" ran up. Originally, Jian Mo wanted to ask again, but he heard Gu Beichen''s uniform breathing. Jane Mo didn''t say anything when she came to her mouth... I thought he was with him in Li Xiaoyue''s ward the night before. He was working before she fell asleep. I can''t bear to come back so late today. Jane Mo didn''t dare to move. She was afraid to wake Gu Beichen up. Finally, she could only keep the posture of being hugged by him and close her eyes Xu is Gu Beichen''s arms are too familiar. Xu is because he is all at ease. Jian Mo soon fell asleep. When Jian Mo''s breath was even and slightly heavy, Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes... The eagle''s eyes were in the dark silence, like a falcon, as if they could devour the prey at any time. When Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo sleeping in his arms, his heart was very complex... That feeling was unclear. With a slight sigh, Gu Beichen dropped a soft kiss on Jian Mo''s forehead and murmured, "I can''t worry about my own affairs, but I have to read your affairs... I''m looking for something if I have nothing to think about..." When the words fell, Gu Beichen suddenly raised his thin lips. Thinking of the way Jian Mo looked when he opened the door at that time, he felt the warmth that he didn''t think about for a while. Close your eyes, it turns out that just embracing each other and sleeping in this way is also comfortable for him. Dawn comes when the dawn tears the thick clouds in the East. It''s good to wake up in a familiar embrace when Jane Mo''s biological clock rings. Gu Beichen also woke up when she was inching, slowly opened his eyes, and saw Jian Mo''s beautiful, delicate and smooth face and bright and pure, but it was completely the eyes of playing a pig and eating a tiger. "Ah Chen, good morning!" Jian Monuo said hello, kissed the nearest Gu Beichen''s skin, and then wanted to get up. However, the talent got up and was pulled back by Gu Beichen Jane Mo frowned slightly, "can''t you get up? You have to go to work!" Gu Beichen only felt that a certain part had been hot, and his sight was deep looking at Jian Mo, "all of them didn''t get up, but some of them have got up..." Gu Beichen motioned, and Jian Mo subconsciously looked down his eyes... He saw somewhere that he had pushed up the quilt Chapter 95 Jane Mo said she was very upset. She didn''t know how strong men''s demand for that... Anyway, Gu Beichen seemed not to be satisfied every time. Even if she let her go at night, she would make up for it in the morning. While brushing her teeth, Jian Mo looked at the kiss mark on her exposed shoulder blade in the mirror and shrugged her shoulder helplessly Jane Mo tried to brush her teeth and felt a little stuffy... But she attributed such stuffy feeling to Gu Beichen''s eating it early in the morning. She even "didn''t want to" but also enjoyed it. Jane Mo wears clothes and goes downstairs. Gu Beichen is drinking coffee and reading the newspaper There are no servants in such a big villa except that someone comes to clean it at a fixed point. It sounds better. It''s a world of two people. It sounds worse... That is, Jane Mo is a shady hidden married wife. Such a person has an advantage. When they go back to divorce, they directly dump the divorce agreement... It''s clean and neat. "Chen, do you have anyone you like?" Jane Mo smeared bread with jam and poured herself a glass of milk. "I mean what I like in my heart..." Gu Beichen didn''t even look at Jian Mo, but flipped the newspaper. He just said in his throat, "HMM." Jane Mo immediately brightened her eyes and gossip on her face, "who is it?" Gu Beichen put down the newspaper and a pair of eagle eyes looked at Jian Mo fiercely, "curious?" Jane Mo quickly brightened her eyes and nodded. Gu Beichen''s thin lips blew a wanton radian. It felt like an yuppie, "you!" "..." Jian Mo felt that it was really not easy for Gu Beichen to say this sentence against her heart, "then... Before me?" False is false. She has a thick skin, so she agrees! Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with a deep and bottomless sight, just like the Millennium ancient lake. He wanted to suck people into his world at any time... Let him kill them! Jane Mo was secretly shocked and felt that she had nothing to do to find a pumping type. "Ha ha, that... It doesn''t matter if you don''t say it." "And you?" Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and asked. "Me?" Jane Mo was stunned for a moment. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly and waited for her answer. Jane Mo pursed her lips and bolted something in her mouth. She looked down bitterly and began to eat her own breakfast Gu Beichen knows everything about her and Chu Zixiao now. Do you still need to ask her? Why, he and his nephew once loved each other... He loves listening so much?! Inexplicably, Jane Mo felt a little stuffy. Gu Beichen naturally didn''t keep asking questions. He just coldly put down his overlapping legs and said "I''ll go to the company first". In this way, people took their pockets with one hand and left without taking away a trace of emotion However, at the moment of turning around, his indifferent face was filled with acid. Gu Beichen drove to the company by himself. In the second half of the year, several acquisition cases piled up together. He had to take charge of the company. "Dong Dong!" When the knock came, Gu Beichen''s slender and powerful fingers danced on the keyboard and answered the sound "come in"! Susan pushed the door and came in. After putting a thick pile of materials in her hand on Gu Beichen''s desk, she said calmly and ably: "Chen Shao, all the materials of JK have been prepared... You can carry out the next M & A at any time." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but his fingers kept beating on the keyboard There is a DOS interface on the computer screen. Strings of strings slide across the screen quickly, and the sound of "didi" comes from time to time. Susan didn''t rush, just waited quietly. Until a long sound of "di -" came from the computer, Gu Beichen withdrew from the DOS interface with satisfaction. "On schedule!" Gu Beichen said indifferently. There was no emotion on his cold, carved face. "You and Xiao Jing discuss the process specifically. I don''t want any accidents!" "Good!" Susan answered. Gu Beichen took the signing pen and waved his pen on the acquisition case. Long feifeng signed his name Susan took the signed document, just turned around and suddenly remembered something and said, "by the way, Chen Shao... In the morning, someone left a message at the front desk and said she wanted to invite you to dinner at diamond star in the evening." Her routine report, "said it was in the old place..." Just when Susan said diamond star, Gu Beichen frowned in an instant. The originally indifferent handsome face also coagulated, "who''s the person coming?" "I don''t know. I didn''t even leave my name..." Susan shrugged. "The front desk said it was a woman. She said just tell you the name of the restaurant and you''ll know." I haven''t seen such a chat-up at the front desk. I thought that it was really Chen Shao''s good friend. Just like the Jian Mo incident, I hurried to report it. Gu Beichen''s breath was a little short, and he even seemed to have something to rush out of his chest for a moment Susan saw something wrong with Gu Beichen and didn''t dare to ask. She went out with the information... But how long has she not seen Chen Shao''s expression like this? Just when the door "clicked" closed, Gu Beichen''s face suddenly disintegrated. He seemed to be a little weak, slowly lying back on the seat, a pair of eagle eyes narrowed slightly, overflowing with a sinister light. "Beichen, if I come back one day... I''ll ask you to meet at diamond star." The sun shines on Shen Chu. She is wearing a monochrome chiffon dress, and her dark Satin like waist length hair is smooth, reflecting a glittering light in the sun. Gu Beichen slowly closed his eyes... It seemed that at this moment, he returned to five years ago. "Do you have to go?" Weak words spilled over his thin lips. Gu Beichen, who was young and energetic, had anger in his eyes. Shen Chu nodded with a thin smile on his charming face, "you know... I have to go." Gu Beichen sneered, "Shen Chu, how dare you trample on my feelings for you like this?" Are you not afraid of him coming back when he is cold Shen Chu drooped his eyes, "that can only show that... We are predestined." There was a touch of self-confidence around her mouth, but she mocked herself astringently. "Beichen, can you keep your heart..." Finally, at the moment when Gu Beichen turned angrily, Shen Chu left the last sentence before leaving Diamond star is a French restaurant with a long history all over the world... And a beautiful love legend. Diamonds are the hardest thing in the world, and stars... Are the brightest in the night. It seems to bless the love between men and women. It is as bright as a diamond and as bright as a star, but it never leaves the ink space that has always contained it. Shen Chu sat in the corner of diamond star near the window, with his arms supporting the wooden table top, the back of his hand gently holding his cheek and looking out The silky and smooth long straight hair gently fell on one side, and the sunset fell on her through the glass window. It was like a still picture, beautiful. Gu Beichen knew that Shen Chu was very beautiful. At that time, they liked her a lot in this circle He still remembers the amazing look when she put herself in a box as a gift to him on his 22nd birthday. Shen Chu felt the burning gaze and slowly closed her eyes... Suddenly, she and Gu Beichen''s deep eyes met in the air. Just for a moment, they seemed to be trapped in each other''s past and couldn''t extricate themselves There is a kind of love, called one eye millennium! There is a kind of thought, called persistence without regret! There is also a kind of pain, just like this moment When Gu Beichen came over, Shen Chu said slowly with a flower like smile: "I knew you didn''t forget our agreement..." Chapter 96 Gu Beichen''s inky eyes looked at him deeply. They hadn''t been seen for five years, but they were still beautiful. His heart was nervous and followed the beating Shen Chu, and a corner of his thin lips pursed slightly. "When did you come back?" Gu Beichen asked. Shen Chu picked his eyebrows and eyes with a beautiful smile, and the depths of his bright and dark eyes were also stained with a smile. "That''s the first sentence he said to me?" Gu Beichen was slightly cold, like a carved handsome face with a touch of astringency, "otherwise?" Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen with a smile, and a complex emotion slipped through his eyes. However, that emotion was only fleeting, "Beichen, five years... I miss you very much." Shen Chu spoke every word very slowly, as if afraid Gu Beichen missed listening. Gu Beichen''s thin lips have become a line, and the uncontrollable emotion in the fundus of his eyes burst out instantly because of Shen Chu''s sentence "miss you". "Go as soon as you say, come back as soon as you say..." Gu Beichen sneered and hooked one side of his thin lips. "Shen Chu, is it too hypocritical to think of me now?" For five years, we are not the people who were impulsive at the beginning Shen Chu drooped his eyes. His long curled eyelashes were like a small fan, casting a shadow on his eyelids. "It''s a little hypocritical..." Hearing her admit, Gu Beichen suddenly turned cold, snorted coldly and said coldly, "Shen Chu, you really haven''t changed!" Shen Chu raised his eyes, "no one can stay the same..." "But your behavior of trampling on others'' hearts at will has not changed?!" Gu Beichen''s voice was mocked by some indifference. Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen quietly. Her pupils were black and bright. When looking at people like this, few people could concentrate, "Beichen, you make me feel..." she smiled astringently, "... I shouldn''t have come back." Gu Beichen was silent. A pair of eagle eyes looked at Shen Chu across the street unscrupulously. For a moment, he had an impulse to strangle her. Secretly took a breath, Gu Beichen''s stiff handsome face has recovered his usual indifference, "I had to go at the beginning, but now... How did I come back?" "If I say... Because of you, do you believe it?" Shen Chu asked with a smile. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. He knew that Shen Chu was lying, but it happened that he was willing to believe Shen Chu sighed, "I haven''t been happy for five years without you." After a slight meal, she lowered her eyes and covered the loss of the bottom of her eyes with long eyelashes. "I know what you say at this moment, you don''t want to believe it, but..." She raised her eyes and felt a little nervous under her eyes. "Beichen, I really miss you." Gu Beichen''s eyes are deep and bottomless. He just condenses Shen Chu quietly and gradually overflows complex and unspeakable emotions. He sees his thin lips open gently and says slowly: "ah Chu, I''m married..." Shen Chu first frowned slightly, then his eyes overflowed with disbelief, and finally... All his emotions turned into sadness and pain, and gradually cracked on his beautiful face! Minkang hospital. Jian Mo came to the hospital to see Li Xiaoyue after work. After another day''s recuperation, Li Xiaoyue''s body has recovered a lot. "Have you read today''s financial newspaper?" Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo and asked. Jane Mo shook her head. "I''m not interested in Finance... Only in the man in charge of Finance!" She was joking and blinked her pretty eyebrows. Li Xiaoyue smiled as if she had no choice but to say, "the emperor will invest in a large-scale high-tech experience hall in Nanhai city. The latest news is that Jinyang electronics is among the ten companies that participated in the final competition." Jian Mo looked at Li Xiaoyue and asked, "that scum man''s company?" Li Xiaoyue nodded. Jane Mo looked at Li Xiaoyue as if she were looking for an answer, but what she saw from her eyes was only a positive answer, "you mean... Maybe it''s a trap?" Li Xiaoyue nodded again. "Although there are two companies with the same scale as Jinyang among the ten companies, the emperor''s investment this time exceeds 2 billion. Such companies should not be in the eyes of the emperor." The implication is that this is Gu Beichen''s trap "Then wait for Gu Beichen to clean up that scum man!" Jane Mo said, her eyes overflowing with light uncontrollably. She knows that Gu Beichen has no feelings for her. The most important thing is to have a responsibility to marry her back... In other words, they are also harmonious and interactive bed partners. He can solve things with his fingers and give her personal feelings. In this way, she is grateful and will naturally work harder to please Gu Beichen... He won''t lose! But I think so. Jane Mo''s heart is still warm She is only 23 years old after all. Although the reality two years ago made her unable to continue dreaming, how could she not be touched at all when she heard him say to help her? Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo''s changeable expression and frowned secretly. When she saw the little woman''s smile pursed at the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth, she was suddenly surprised "Jian Mo," Li Xiaoyue shouted formally, "are you... In love with Gu Beichen?!" Although it was a question, there was a voice in her heart telling her the affirmative answer. Jane Mo suddenly froze, fanned her eyelashes and looked at Li Xiaoyue. For a moment, she forgot to refute. Li Xiaoyue studied law and was born sensitive. In addition, there are many cases involving emotional aspects. I have seen more. Now I am more sure of the fact that Jane Mo may fall "How can I like..." Jane Mo said hurriedly with her mouth pulled. However, halfway through the conversation, her heart suddenly became empty. "Girl, Gu Beichen is poison!" Li Xiaoyue worried about Jian Mo, "unless you can turn yourself into his poppy, or... Take care of your heart!" Jane Mo was silent, as if thinking about Li Xiaoyue''s words, but a voice in her heart affirmed what she had just said more and more loudly. "You don''t know who I am in my heart..." Jian Mo was a little flustered and just wanted to veto Li Xiaoyue''s speculation. "I have to marry Gu Beichen. You know. Ha ha... How can I fall in love with a man who will leave after all?" Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo with sharp eyes and wanted to see how true her words were. "You mean... You still love Chu Zixiao now?" "Of course..." Jane Mo hurriedly answered, as if to cover the topic of "she fell in love with Gu Beichen". Chu Zixiao originally wanted to knock on the door and his raised hand froze in place. He looked at the silhouette of Jian Mo from the vision of only half closing the door. While the fundus of his eyes turned into a surprise, the corners of his mouth exploded because of joy. "Are you sure..." Li Xiaoyue suddenly shut up and looked at the door of the ward. She was surprised, "Zixiao?!" Jian Mo''s heart went up and down like a roller coaster, and then slowly turned around, biting her lips secretly, and looked at Chu Zixiao''s urgent, excited, hot and complex eyes "Mo Mo..." Chu Zixiao called softly and walked in. He stopped in front of Jian Mo and ignored Li Xiaoyue''s affectionate look at her. "You lied to me before, and you still love me..." Then, his excited long arm explored, took Jane Mo into his arms and held her quietly, as if he was afraid that she would slip away again Chapter 97 Jane Mo didn''t react for a moment and let Chu Zixiao hold her tightly. Even, for a moment, she seemed to cross back to the time when she was on campus with him Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo, who was tightly held in Chu Zixiao''s arms, and became more and more worried. She didn''t know whether Jian Mo had feelings for Chu Zixiao or whether she would say that because she wanted to escape her feelings for Gu Beichen But no matter what kind of situation, for Jane Mo, the result is harm! Jian Mo finally reacted and subconsciously wanted to push Chu Zixiao away. However, he held it too tightly and couldn''t push it away "Let go of me..." Jian Mo said, putting his hands against Chu Zixiao''s chest and trying to push it away again. "Don''t let go!" Chu Zixiao was gnashing his teeth. "I''ll never let you go again!" Jane Mo closed her eyes and scolded her idiot secretly. At the same time, she pushed harder... Unfortunately, Chu Zixiao''s strength to hold her increased, and she still couldn''t push it away. Just let go of me, Jane Her tone is somewhat helpless. Chu Zixiao finally let go of Jian mo. a pair of deep eyes showed plunder. Then he looked at Li Xiaoyue and said, "wait, Mo Mo and I will come and see you again..." he said. He grabbed Jian Mo''s hand and pulled her away. Li Xiaoyue frowned, and her pale face was even more dignified. She thought to herself: how can Mo Mo get away from her uncle and nephew?! "Where are you taking me?" Jane Mo asked helplessly. Because Chu Zixiao had a big step, she had to trot to keep up. Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but took Jane Mo to the elevator... All the way out of the hospital, stuffed her into the car, then started the car and drove away from the hospital with a "whoosh". Jane Mo decides to shut up. It''s understandable that Chu Zixiao misunderstood her just now, but... Because of his misunderstanding, she is much clearer now. Still in love with Chu Zixiao? I''m afraid it''s more about all the nostalgia for two years ago... Now, her heart may have been unknowingly lost in Gu Beichen. Drooping eyes, there is a heavy touch on Jian Mo''s face with naked makeup... Can Xiao Yue see that she has shown too much without knowing it? Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo with his eyes drooping and silent while waiting for a traffic light. He clenched the steering wheel and started the car when the light changed Finally, the car stopped at Luoda. Jane looked down at the surroundings, and it was actually the Wutong Avenue in lo da. Because Wutong has already entered the autumn, some parts of the Wutong leaves have begun to yellowing, and the night is also a night of wind blowing down a layer of phoenix tree leaves, just like the scene of the year. When she got out of the car, Jane Mo had a lot of thoughts. She has never been a very enthusiastic person. It was an accident to get together with Chu Zixiao. It was also an accident to fall in love with him Chu Zixiao turned the wheel and stood opposite Jian mo. the burning heat of his eyes and the smile of his mouth were particularly charming reflected by the afterglow of the sunset. He naturally pulled his hand and then turned around to go to the plane of Wutong road. But he could not pull the momentum of the simple foam after falling. "Foam?" Chu Zixiao looked back at her suspiciously. Jane Mo pursed her lower lip and followed Chu Zixiao forward The evening sun penetrated the two leaves of the Wutong leaf mottling, and then pulled the two figure long. Because it''s time for school meals, it''s very quiet here. "Mo Mo, I''m very happy..." Chu Zixiao said like a child. Where is there a little calm in court on weekdays? Jane Mo pursed her lips, and the mottled shadow of the tree fell on her face, overflowing heavily "You don''t know, since I came back and met you on the night of heaven, I have been sharp, helpless, irritable and helpless..." Chu Zixiao smiled. "Anyway, I''m just waiting for you to say ''still love'' Chu Zi Xiao looked at Jane Eyre, and the face of Jun Yi was totally delighted. "Mo Mo, from leaving to coming back, I was thinking of pulling your hand across the Wutong Avenue every day," then I asked you to marry me! He closed his eyes and looked ahead. "In this place that represents you and me in love... I want to hold your hand and go on until..." Chu Zixiao''s smile deepened, "... The end of the world and life." Jane Mo stopped, took out her hand and looked at him, "Zixiao, if I gave you the wrong message, I''m willing to apologize..." Chu Zixiao frowned. "I was flustered at that time..." Jane Mo pursed her lips, and her bright eyes tried not to avoid Chu Zixiao''s eyes. "That''s why I said that to Xiao Yue." "You..." Chu Zixiao''s eyes overflowed with resistance, "... What do you mean?" Jane Mo''s breathing was a little heavy. She tried to suppress the complex emotions in her heart, secretly clenched her teeth, and just said, "because I don''t love... This reason may have been used to deceive myself or you before, but now..." "How about now?" Chu Zixiao''s voice was coldly, "now you really don''t love? Because you''re in love with Gu Beichen... Right?" At last, there was a feeling of forbearance in his voice. Jane Mo lowered her eyes, then raised it and calmly replied, "yes!" She has always been a person who dares to love and hate. She has never been a person who likes to drag water. "Zixiao, falling in love with Gu Beichen may be beyond my ability, but... I can''t control my heart." Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo with disappointment. "Even if his heart is not on you at all, even if he marries you, he just needs a wife to get back his shares, even if he just looks at you -" At the end, he growled uncontrollably. Jane Mo frowned slightly. Although these were clearly facts, Chu Zixiao''s mouth hurt her nerves. "Yes..." Jane Mo clenched her teeth and said a word. Her beautiful eyes didn''t hesitate. "Zixiao, you know me, don''t you? Even if I know this, I still can''t control my heart." Chu Zixiao took a step back in disappointment because he knew that just when she conveyed that she really didn''t love now, his heart began to panic. It seemed that he was in the clouds one moment ago and fell to the bottom the next second... The feeling of weightlessness was unacceptable to him. "Jian mo..." Chu Zixiao''s voice was a little hoarse and confused. "My little uncle was unintentional. His heart was only given to a woman, do you understand?" Jian Mo was stunned in situ for a moment. Chu Zixiao understood... It means Gu Beichen can''t love anyone anymore?! "I didn''t think he would fall in love with me..." Jane Mo suffocated badly in her heart, but her face was calm. "It''s my business that I didn''t control my heart, but I have no right to ask him to love me as well." "Love is greedy in the world," said Chu Zixiao, gnashing his teeth. "The more you love him, you will only hope that he can return a little... Mo Mo, you are a proud man. Do you have to put yourself in such a humble place?" Jane Mo drooped her eyes and scratched astringency on the corners of her mouth. "Zixiao... Isn''t that what you are now?" "Even if Mingming puts himself in the humble dust..." Jane Mo raises her eyes and looks at Chu Zixiao turtle''s painful face. She feels guilty, but she still grits her teeth and says ruthlessly: "if the heart wants to be like this, how can I control not to love?" Chapter 98 A rhetorical question made Chu Zixiao speechless. Both he and Jian Mo are arrogant people. Such a lowliness should not belong to them However, there is no arrogance in the world of love. Only those who love more will become humble. "Zixiao, everything can''t go back..." Jian Mo''s heart is heavy, but also relieved. "If you have to blame, you can only blame everything involuntarily." Her eyes were clear without any impurities. "I can only blame... Two years ago, when I was most helpless, the person who appeared in front of me was not you, but him!" If it weren''t for Gu Beichen, she wouldn''t last until now... If it weren''t for him, her mother''s medical expenses would not be available, and she wouldn''t even have money to find a suitable heart for transplantation. Isn''t it said that women are emotional animals? Once the body is handed over to a man, it''s easy to lose heart to that man? Maybe that''s what happened to her. At least... For two years, Gu Beichen was very nice to her, and their beds seemed to be very harmonious. The most important thing is that she doesn''t have any pressure to get along with Gu Beichen Looking at Jian Mo''s firm eyes, Chu Zixiao suddenly felt that she had no chance... This opportunity was not because Jian Mo was now his "little aunt", but that she no longer had him in her heart. Turning slowly, Chu Zixiao''s relaxed and pleasant when getting off the bus was instantly replaced by heavy sadness. The setting sun pulled his leaving back long and overlapped with Jane Mo''s body. After all, the falling scene announced the pain of parting. "Mo Mo..." Chu Zixiao suddenly stopped his heavy steps and didn''t look back, but said in a distant voice, "I''ll wait for you and come back to me when you''re sad." As if determined that Jian Mo would be sad, Chu Zixiao''s tone showed a certain meaning Jane Mo frowned and moved her mouth, but swallowed her words. Even if you fall in love with Gu Beichen, you know you will leave one day... But she and Chu Zixiao can''t go back. Jane Wutong alone on the plane of the Indus Road, and draw further apart from Chu Silun''s shadow, as if to say goodbye to the first love in the past... Chu Zi Xiao drove away, and Jane froth stood at the end of Wutong Avenue, looking at the sky, leaving only the glow of the western sky in the sky. The atmosphere in Diamond Star is very solemn and dignified, just like the Wutong avenue of loda. Shen Chu sat behind the central piano, with his hands on the black and white keys lightly stained with bare white nail polish. He looked slightly at Beichen. Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was so indifferent. The eagle''s eyes were deep and bottomless, and then tangled in the air. "Someone said," Shen Chu spoke softly, with a soft and pleasant voice, "five years can''t go back." She drooped her eyes and smiled. She was already beautiful. She was more beautiful and moving in the light of the glass lamp. "But if each other''s hearts are as hard as diamond, will they be the same to each other even though time changes?" Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen and his eyes became hot. Gu Beichen gently pursed his thin lips, and the ink pupil was as deep as a vortex Shen Chu smiled at him again. "This piano song he taught me is given to star in my heart..." Then, the whole restaurant overflowed with soothing but intoxicating piano music. Shen Chu''s hand danced on the black-and-white keys like an elf, and all the notes overflowed with intoxicating infatuation. The people who come to diamond star for dinner are all high-class people with some musical literacy. Listening to the piano music played by Shen Chu, they were addicted to it... Until the last note fell. When applause came, Shen Chu got up with a shallow smile and returned to his seat with a proud but calm step after a ceremony from a rich lady on the stage. "Beichen," Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen and smiled confidently, "you still love me!" What she said was quite certain. Gu Beichen didn''t change his face. "Yes..." he didn''t avoid the question, "but it can''t change the fact that I''m married." "I''ll wait for you to come back to me..." Shen Chu said calmly, "keep waiting!" Gu Beichen frowned invisibly, "what if I don''t divorce all the time?" He suddenly sneered, "would you like to be my lover?" "If you want to trample on me, I''ll be willing to degenerate..." Shen Chu smiled, but it was a little bitter. Gu Beichen was suddenly cold. "Shen Chu, are you forcing me?" "If you think so, that''s good." Shen Chu pursed her lips. She tried to keep her pride. Where did Gu Beichen see Shen Chu''s look? After all, he still failed "You know, I can''t see you in such a humble realm..." Gu Beichen laughed at himself. "Shen Chu, you won." His eyes were deep, some gnashing their teeth, "you beat me with my love for you!" Shen Chu leaned over slightly and hugged Gu Beichen''s hand on the table, "Beichen, I just want to be with you..." Gu Beichen looked at Shen Chu with bright eyes. She was a proud woman. Even though she was not valued by her family from childhood, she was never ashamed of herself. At this moment... How much pride does she have to put down when she talks to him like this with a sense of inferiority? The night seems to open a chapter of love. Some people are happy, some are throbbing, some are hesitating, and some are at a loss! Gu Beichen and Shen Chu didn''t ask each other what had happened in the past five years. It was as if they deliberately wanted to stay five years ago when they were madly in love with each other. After leaving diamond star, Gu Beichen sent Shen Chu back to the hotel Standing in the lobby of the hotel waiting for the elevator, Gu Beichen copied his pocket with both hands. After five years of ups and downs, he became more and more calm. He rarely spilled other emotions. Shen Chu looked at him and suddenly put his hand on his arm. "Is the blues still on?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly. When Shen Chu heard this, his eyes brightened. "Where''s the wine I put there?" Gu Beichen looked sideways at Shen Chu, deeply frozen his eyes, and took back his sight awkwardly, "still there!" As soon as Shen Chu heard this, she stood on tiptoe happily and kissed Gu Beichen on the cheek. "You still abide by our promise..." there was joy and joy in her tone. Gu Beichen pursed his lips and arrived at the elevator at the right time. He didn''t know whether he didn''t want to answer Shen Chu''s question or hide his embarrassment. He had already walked in Shen Chu''s smile grew deeper and deeper. He followed Gu Beichen''s steps and entered the elevator together, "so you''ve been waiting for me, haven''t you?" When the elevator door "clattered" closed, Gu Beichen''s indifference and helplessness could be seen in the gap At the right time, a reporter hurried over with a SLR, but the elevator door had been completely closed. The reporter stamped his feet secretly. After hesitating for a few seconds, he didn''t see which woman Gu Beichen took to open the room... He scolded himself secretly and looked at the rising number of the elevator. Finally, he saw the presidential suite on the top floor, and his eyes lit up. Although Gu Beichen has been plagued by gossip from time to time, no one has ever photographed him bringing a woman to the hotel Even if the photo that broke out with Luo Xiaotong last time is also due to the angle, it''s just that they both entered the mirror. I didn''t expect him to come here for an exclusive interview and see such a hot With a smile on his lips, the reporter quickly took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to the newspaper, asking him to send several people to squat in multiple directions, which is bound to capture who this woman is?! Chapter 99 Gu Beichen frowned slightly when he came into the presidential suite. He didn''t know whether it was a coincidence or something. The room Shen Chu ordered was the one he and the woman who didn''t know who it was two years ago. "What''s the matter?" Shen Chu poured a glass of water to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen took a drink and asked, "why didn''t you go home?" "I want to see you first, so..." Shen Chu smiled, with a touch of cunning in his eyes. "I told them to come back tomorrow." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes tightly coagulated Shen Chu. Finally, the thin corners of his lips turned into a smile. Shen Chu came forward and sat down next to Gu Beichen. He circled his arm and put his head on his shoulder. He deliberately ignored the pain from his stomach. "Why don''t you go back tonight?" There was a trace of ambiguity in her voice. "Drop me off tomorrow morning." Gu beichenjun''s face was so indifferent, "are you seducing me into cheating in my marriage?" He couldn''t tell whether he was joking or serious in his voice, but eagle eyes looked at Shen Chu deeply. Shen Chu smiled and looked up at Gu Beichen. "If you think this is..." she deliberately paused, and the smile on her face deepened. "That can only say that you can''t help luring or!" Gu Beichen gently picked up a evil spirit, but with a faint radian, put down the water cup, "I''ll pick you up tomorrow morning." Then he put down his overlapping legs and wanted to get up. Shen Chu smiled bitterly at the corners of his mouth, but it was only immediately hidden. "I heard that Shaochen is also in Los Angeles now?" Gu Beichen slightly tilted his head and looked down at Shen Chu. There was a touch of complexity in the depths of the eagle''s eyes, "HMM." Shen Chu smiled calmly, "have a chance to ask out and sit together?" Paused, "call Jinxi them." "OK." Gu Beichen calmly replied, "you have a rest earlier... I''ll go first." "I''ll see you off..." Shen Chu got up and walked out with Gu Beichen. Suddenly, Shen Chu only felt a puff in her stomach, and a thin layer of sweat spilled over her forehead... She suddenly bit her teeth. When Gu Beichen looked back at her, she had endured to pull the corners of her mouth. At the door, Shen Chu grabbed the door, tried to pretend nothing had happened, looked at Gu Beichen and said, "I......" because she endured the pain in her stomach, she secretly bit her teeth, "I''ll wait for you tomorrow." Gu Beichen nodded and was about to leave. Yu Guang slipped through Shen Chu''s hand holding the door... Just at a glance, he saw that she forbeared and used her hand. The foot that wanted to lift stopped, Gu Beichen''s sword eyebrow frowned slightly, and Mo Tong looked at Shen Chu sharply, "stomach ache?" Although it is a doubt, it is obvious that he has confirmed it. Shen Chu pulled the corners of his mouth and said, "you... Still know me so well..." Gu Beichen''s face sank suddenly. "Shen Chu, can''t you take good care of yourself?" His voice was filled with anger. "I''ll take you to the hospital." "I''ll have a rest... It''s all right..." Shen Chu''s face has begun to turn pale. "Just come and pick me up tomorrow morning..." Gu beichenjun''s face was full of haze. "Shen Chu, don''t you know your stomach is bad? Have you not eaten before dinner today?" Shen Chu held the door tighter and tighter because of the pain, but the corners of his mouth stubbornly pulled and smiled, "I''ll take some medicine myself... Just go." Then she turned around and closed the door habitually. The door was pushed by Gu Beichen just before it was closed. When he came in, he saw Shen Chu bent and pressed on the small bar. "I''ll take you to the hospital..." Gu Beichen said with a cold face. Shen Chu gave him a resistant look, "I''m not going..." Gu Beichen frowned and was angry that Shen Chu didn''t like to go to the hospital until now She came forward and picked up Shen Chu. She thought he wanted to take her to the hospital. Holding his clothes in her small hand, she begged, "don''t go to the hospital..." Gu Beichen looked down at Shen Chu''s pitiful eyes, and finally took her to the bed with a cold face. "I''ll go to the hotel kitchen and get you some ginger tea." With that, he turned and left. Shen Chu didn''t want to talk because of stomach spasm, so he let Gu Beichen toss about. Ginger tea came quickly because Shen Chu had a cold stomach. Before, whenever he had a stomachache, Gu Beichen would cook her a cup of warm stomach as long as he was around her After drinking ginger tea, Shen Chu felt much better in his stomach. "Did you cook it yourself?" She asked a little weakly. Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but took the cup and put it down. Shen Chu''s face was still a little bad, but the corners of his mouth smiled. "I remember the taste..." she lowered her eyes. "You don''t know, I miss your ginger tea every time I have a stomachache in five years." Gu Beichen sighed, "stomach discomfort, rest earlier, huh?" Shen Chu raised his eyes and looked at Gu Beichen. There was a feeling of begging in the bottom of his eyes, but he was stubborn and didn''t say anything. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, and finally he sighed, "sleep, I won''t go tonight." When Shen Chu heard this, his smile overflowed from the corners of his mouth. That smile immediately reached the bottom of his eyes and dispersed the deep begging. The next day, when the East just spit out the white fish belly, Gu Beichen opened a room with a woman in Sofia Hotel. The news that he had not left for a night spread among the media and instantly lit the morning in Los Angeles I don''t know how the news leaked. Originally, there was only one media squatting. In an instant, the media rushed from all directions to "surround" the Sofia Hotel. It is bound to take a picture of who the woman Gu Beichen is! Gu Beichen was awakened by the phone. He sat up with a slight frown, picked up his mobile phone and listened to the voice of the people inside. He was angry and said, "huh?" The person on the phone repeated the situation outside the hotel again. Gu Beichen couldn''t help frowning, "when did it happen?" "I just got the news and came... I''m squatting!" Luo Xiaomi Tiannuo''s voice came over the phone, "little uncle, why don''t you give me an exclusive... Who''s the person who opened the house with you?" "I''ll take someone to the third sister later. You can come back and see who it is!" Gu Beichen said that he had got up and walked to the window. Looking down, he could clearly see the reporter at the door. Uncle Luo, I''ll give you a message when I look back, uncle Luo "Well..." Gu Beichen answered and hung up. Turning around, Shen Chu got up and came out of the inner room "What''s the matter?" Shen Chu came from a rich family after all. Sensitive, she came forward and looked at it on the window. "Is there a reporter?" She looked sideways at Gu Beichen for an answer. Gu Beichen made a "um" sound and said indifferently, "it''s estimated that someone saw you when I sent you back last night. Now I haven''t left all night... There are many scandals in China." He added a sentence when he arrived. Shen Chu frowned, "I don''t want to be the gossip woman in your marriage..." she pursed her lips and knew the media ability. I''m afraid she can''t escape even if she leaves Gu Beichen. But she has to go home in the morning, and it''s troublesome to delay... It''s troublesome to be exposed and come back early! "Go wash yourself first," Gu Beichen said calmly. "I''ll try to take you away later." Shen Chu frowned and nodded After washing and dressing, he came out and saw Gu Beichen put down his cell phone and hang up, "go!" "Just go?" Shen Chu thought that to avoid the media, you should disguise it a little anyway? Aren''t two people going out like this waiting for headlines? Gu Beichen, with his thin lips and a wanton radian, came forward and grabbed Shen Chu''s hand, went out of the presidential suite and into the elevator Shen Chu slightly pursed his lips and looked at the hands held by the two people. She felt sweet for a while... She thought that if it was exposed like this, she would be willing. However, Gu Beichen didn''t want her to be in the scandal of public opinion... Instead of going to the parking lot, he went to the exclusive underground parking lot of the hotel. "Chen Shao." A man in a hotel uniform greeted respectfully and took out his car key. Gu Beichen took it, "thank President Xing for me." After that, he had stuffed Shen Chu into the back seat and drove out of the hotel When the media knew that Gu Beichen''s golden cicada had come out of its shell, the media who had been guarding outside the hotel stared and scolded angrily Chapter 100 Los Angeles media squatted outside the Sofia Hotel. Finally, the news that Gu Beichen took the mysterious woman out of her shell spread all over Los Angeles in an instant Gu Beichen has many gossip women and has never avoided the media. Moreover, there are many ambiguous records in the past, but I have never spent a night with any woman With the combination of two points and one, people showed an unprecedented thirst for knowledge and curiosity about who the mysterious woman who was specially treated and even protected by Gu Beichen did not appear in front of the media. Early in the morning, whether paper media or audio media, or the Internet, were occupied by "Gu Beichen left mysteriously after spending a night with a mysterious woman" Some people speculate that this woman is actually the rumored Mrs. Gu. Because Gu Beichen didn''t want to expose it, he chose this way... But someone soon rejected it. It was also speculated that Mrs. Gu''s status would not be protected. Gu Beichen must be the woman who was going to be righted. Some people mentioned Lu man, who has been having an affair with Gu Beichen recently, saying that her rival appeared In short, no matter what you say, you finally find that there is only one tragic figure, that is Mrs. Gu who is silent and doesn''t know who it is! Jian Mo''er took a taxi from Luoda to the hospital last night. After taking the car, she went back to lanze park. Gu Beichen didn''t come back all night. She was used to it However, she didn''t expect that the gossip conveyor would share such a big news with her as soon as she arrived at the company. "Tut Tut," Xiang night looked at Jian Mo with a gossip face, "sister Mo, no... was the woman last night really you?" "If it''s me, I''ll introduce you to Chen Shao and ask you to make small five and six for him..." Jian Mo stared angrily and said immediately, "don''t you do anything yet?!" He threw his lips at night and turned away a little boring. Jian Mo''s face became a little stiff after she left at night. If it had been before, she must have just smiled at such news and looked at it completely as irrelevant gossip. But I saw my mind yesterday. Today, Gu Beichen came out. I''m not sad. I can''t even deceive myself Jian Mo said frankly that he didn''t know Gu Beichen, but he also knew that if he didn''t care, he would never protect him like this. They spent the night in the hotel and were exposed?! Jane Mo suddenly felt some nausea. The sour feeling made her stomach convulse, and she wanted to retch. Sad in the stomach is not enough, even the position of the heart twitches... Jane Mo knows that she is sad and jealous at this moment! Inexplicably, I remembered what Chu Zixiao said to her yesterday... Is this woman the only woman Gu Beichen has ever cared about?! All day, Jane Mo was a little listless. As long as she was free, all she thought about was "the woman Gu Beichen spent the night with". Sure enough, once a person loses his heart, he will become a neuropathy in the love world! Or the humble kind! After work, Jane Mo went to the hospital to see Li Xiaoyue. If there was no accident, she could leave the hospital and go home for rest tomorrow. However, after arriving at the hospital, Li Xiaoyue was not in the ward "Hello, what did the people in this ward do?" Jane morla asked the nurse. The nurse looked at the ward and then said, "Oh, just now a woman came to her. It seems that after two people quarreled in the ward, she went out with that woman..." Jane Mo frowned in an instant. "Do you know where you''ve gone?" The nurse shook her head, "I don''t know..." "Thank you!" Jane Mo said thanks and dialed Li Xiaoyue''s phone, but no one answered. There was an uneasy mood in her heart. Jane Mo turned and went to some places in the hospital, but she couldn''t find it "Eh, there seems to be a quarrel on the roof..." suddenly, someone nearby said. Jane moxin was surprised, raised her head and looked up... Li Xiaoyue was wearing a sick suit, her neck was pinched and pressed to the edge, and her hand was also pulling a woman''s hair. His face was suddenly shocked. Where did Jane Mo dare to delay, she hurried into the elevator and hurried to the roof. "Li Xiaoyue, if you want to be shameless, you should hook my husband and have a baby..." the woman tore Li Xiaoyue sharply. "I''ll see how thick your face is today." Li Xiaoyue is not easy to mess with. She directly pulls a woman''s hair. "You can be a treasure for such a cheap man... Jin Shuman, what if I hook? That means your man owes hook... What if I have a child? That''s because you can''t lay an egg for so many years!" "What can you do if you can conceive? It''s not the miscarriage that he kicked..." Jin Shuman smiled sarcastically and tore it up with Li Xiaoyue. When Jian Mo came up, she saw such a scene. Without saying a word, she came forward to join the battle circle and pushed Jin Shuman to the. "You bitch, you dare push me. Do you know who I am?" Jin Shuman screamed sharply at Jian mo. Jane Mo gave her a cold look and said coldly, "only the lost woman will become sharp... Go home and take good care of your man. If you harass Xiao Yue again, I''ll call the police!" Sneering at Jin Shuman, Jian Mo helped Li Xiaoyue, who was a little tired, to walk under the roof. Jin Shuman was shocked by the momentum of Jian Mo and was stunned. When they reacted, they had already gone down the roof. After sending Li Xiaoyue back to the ward, Jin Shuman didn''t know where to get the news. He knew that Li Xiaoyue was hospitalized because of miscarriage, so he immediately came to find her to vent his anger. "Are your hands okay?" Li Xiaoyue asked, looking at Jian Mo to clean up the scratch marks. Jane Mo looked at her face and shook her head indifferently. Then she looked at Li Xiaoyue in a panic, and her heart was very heavy. "Girl, I want to leave the hospital..." Li Xiaoyue said in a shallow voice. Jane Mo pursed her lips and said without asking, "well, I''ll go through the formalities." "Girl, thank you..." Li Xiaoyue smiled. "Thank you for being with me." Jane Mo looked at her and didn''t say anything. She just gave her a comforting smile before turning around and going through the discharge formalities. After sending Li Xiaoyue back to her apartment, Jane went to the nearby supermarket to buy vegetables and nutrients, cooked dinner and ate with her The atmosphere was a little dignified. Jian Mo didn''t want Li Xiaoyue to be unhappy and didn''t mention the hospital. And Li Xiaoyue didn''t ask about Gu Beichen''s news in the morning because she saw Jian Mo''s thoughts about Gu Beichen yesterday. The two avoided the gossip of these topics and ate until the voice of text messages came from Jian Mo''s mobile phone. Li Jinxi: beauty, there''s a best friend lying on heaven night at night. Do you want to join us? By the way, introduce some people who need to find designers recently! Come on, come on! Jian Mo accidentally received a short message from Li Jinxi. She wanted to refuse, but she thought that her career really needs a circle, and she can only agree. "If you have something to do, go and do it." Li Xiaoyue said, "I''ll go to bed later..." Jane nodded. "Don''t think about it, huh?" She pursed her lips. "Xiaoyue, there''s nothing we can''t get through. No matter what we lose, at least we have each other, don''t we?" Li Xiaoyue''s heart was warm for a while, "HMM." Jane Mo hugged Li Xiaoyue and left... But if she knew that her best friend would let her know something, she might not come! Chapter 101 On the night of heaven when Jane Mo went home and changed her clothes, she called her when she arrived at the floor Li Jinxi said Li Jinxi came out to pick up people. Today''s she is different from the enchanting when she watched the concert that day. She is only wearing a pair of treasure blue nine point pencil pants and a rose pink long sleeved shirt. The whole person is capable but does not lose her style. "Mo Mo, here..." Li Jinxi waved to Jian mo. Li Jinxi likes to make friends. After chatting with Jane Mo last time, she likes her very much. She naturally thought of her when she wanted to find more people for the party tonight. Jian Mo walked forward and was led into the box by Li Jinxi... There have been a lot of people inside, half of whom are from the upper class society in Los Angeles, several stars, and gold and white-collar workers from all walks of life similar to Jian mo. at a glance, Li Jinxi knows that Li Jinxi has a wide range of friends. Jane Mo was surprised to see the woman who ate with Gu Beichen and then sent her home together. "Hello, Kruis!" Kruis generously poked his hand at Jian Mo, "I didn''t expect Jinxi''s friend to be you." Jane Mo smiled and shook hands, "Jane mo." Li Jinxi was cheerful and introduced Jian Mo one by one. Most people here also "know" Jane mo. after all, she has occupied a place in the "celebrities" in Los Angeles recently. "What to drink?" Li Jinxi asked, completely unaware of the disdainful look of these women in the circle at Jian mo. Jane Mo smiled and said, "fruit Daiquiri!" After Li Jinxi answered, he ordered to take the wine and said, "foam is for architectural engineering design, as well as indoor design. In the future, the sisters will find someone to design... Here, ready-made!" Li Jinxi made a speech, and naturally everyone would agree. "Eh, like Xiaochu, I study design?" Someone said suddenly. Someone listened and slightly raised his eyebrows: "Xiaochu? Who?" "Shen Chu..." a woman replied, "isn''t this just for her today?" When it comes to Shen Chu, you and I are all talking about the central idea we haven''t missed for five years... But only they know how sincere such care is. After hearing this, Jian Mo guessed that everyone didn''t like Shen Chu... Women are hostile to other women, which generally reflects several points. More beautiful than them, more talented than them, better and more beautiful than their boyfriend, more powerful and talented, better and more beautiful than their family Jane Mo didn''t know these people and didn''t interrupt. She just listened quietly and dealt with one or two sentences from time to time. However, at the end of the hearing, the smile on her face suddenly stiffened. "Xi, you and Xiao Chu are serious girlfriends. In other words... She has been away for five years and Chen Shao has been married for two years. Are they still possible?" Li Jinxi shrugged. "Up to now, I haven''t seen the legendary Mrs. Gu. I think Beichen has a Chu in his heart." "That''s not necessarily..." Kruis said with an eyebrow. "I don''t think I can talk with a little girl this morning, Kruis." "No..." someone answered in surprise, "didn''t Chujie come back in the morning?" "Yes, the time is not right..." "Come on, come on," Li Jinxi shrugged. "The protagonists and heroines are not in a hurry about emotional things. What are we worried about?" With that, she had shouted a song to sing. Jane Mo''s heart seemed to be choked by cotton. She didn''t expect that a large part of the reason for coming here was to work. Finally, she heard such a big "gossip". Is that Shen Chu the only woman Gu Beichen has ever cared about?! "Mo Mo, what are you singing..." Li Jinxi pulled her throat and interrupted Jian Mo''s thoughts. Jane Mo shook her head with a smile and said, "I don''t want to be ashamed because I can''t speak properly... Come first." Li Jinxi smiled and scolded, and there was no reluctance. From the topic of Shen Chu, people have continued to other topics in the song. Women are nothing more than bags, clothes, jewelry and men. Although Jian Mo was not born into a rich family, she can be regarded as a middle-class family in the end. Later, after marrying Gu Beichen, she was full of luxury goods. This circle, frankly speaking, laughed at the poor rather than prostitutes. Coupled with Jian Mo''s hypocrisy, it was not a joke. After a while, it integrated into everyone''s topic. After playing for a while, Shen Chu came late. When the door of the box was pushed open and everyone''s eyes fell on the door, they were stunned and forgot to respond... Because not only Shen Chu came, but Gu Beichen and Li Yunze also came. "Eh?" Li Jinxi came forward, hooked Li Yunze''s arm and looked at Gu Beichen, "are you two transsexual today?" She raised her eyebrows and joked, "tonight is my best friend lying down!" "I had dinner with Beichen, met Yunze, and then came together..." Shen Chu smiled charming and moving, "do you mind?" "Of course I don''t mind the person who comes to pay the bill!" Li Jinxi said with a smile, and then motioned three people to come in. The light in the box was not particularly bright. Jian Mo sat on the side with the door facing back. At first, Gu Beichen and Li Yunze didn''t see her. When they came in, their eyes fell on her. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and Li Yunze looked at him. "What''s the matter?" Shen Chu felt the difference between Gu Beichen and asked him. Gu Beichen calmly converged his eyes, "it''s all right." Then he took Shen Chu to sit down. Because of the participation of two men and the special organization for Shen Chu, a group of women will naturally not let Shen Chu and Gu Beichen, who has just become a topic, go. Kruis glanced at Jian Mo, who was silent, raised his eyebrows, looked at Gu Beichen and asked, "king, we were just saying... Who was the person you spent the night with last night?" "Yes, yes... Come on, be honest, Xiaochu, is it you?" "You won''t come back one day in advance. In order to enjoy the world of two with Beichen?" "Yes, be honest..." The women immediately joked and began to ask Shen Chu. Jian Mo''s eyes fell on Shen Chu. She was wearing a cotton and Linen Skirt, a pair of small leather boots, long and straight soft hair scattered behind her at random, and several strands of naughty fell with her actions and words. This woman is beautiful... But why does she think she feels so familiar? Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen with a smile. "Speaking of this, I''m also curious... Who''s that woman?!" Her voice was a little playful, but a little ambiguous. "Any one of you is possible..." Gu Beichen said lightly with thin lips. As soon as his words fell, they immediately attracted the laughter of all the women. Jane Mo drooped her eyes and taunted. The woman''s sixth sense told her that the woman was Shen Chu! Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and Yu Guang caught a glimpse of Jian morwei pursing her lips... She would do this whenever she had a little thought. Li Jinxi sat down in the empty seat beside Jian Mo, and suddenly looked at Li Yunze suspiciously, "Yunze, why are you looking at Mo Mo all the time? Won''t you like Mo Mo? Or... I''ll set you up?" She joked, "we are a beautiful woman. There is no shop in this village!" Li Yunze looked at Li Jinxi with warning in his eyes. He felt more and more that the twin sister was a second-class product... He really doubted how dream was made and listed by her. But this second product is not too big a joke. As soon as he pushed Jian Mo in, "don''t stare at me, the beauty sent you... Ha ha..." Jian Mo looked at Li Jinxi reluctantly and saw her laughing jokingly at her eyebrow. She could only deal with it with a smile... But she couldn''t laugh under such a situation. "Alas?" Suddenly someone wondered, "just now I thought Jian Mo looked familiar. Now it''s parallel to Shen Chu... Why do I think the two people are a little alike?" Chapter 102 A doubt immediately made everyone''s eyes subconsciously fall on the faces of Shen Chu and Jian mo Even without the woman''s surprise, because her words, everyone found that they were really similar, especially the big eyes of the elves who seemed to be full of words. "Tut Tut," said Li Jinxi. "If you cover your nose, the two people can''t tell each other." She was a little annoyed, "why didn''t I notice before?!" Shen Chu frowned and looked at Jian mo At the right moment, Jane Mo also looked at her... Just now she felt that Shen Chu was a little familiar. It turned out that it was because she felt a little like looking in the mirror?! The corners of his mouth slightly drew a light smile. That smile seemed polite in the eyes of everyone, but it became a mockery at the bottom of Gu Beichen''s eyes. Jane Mo always felt that it was her luck to meet Gu Beichen at such a difficult time. But it turns out... Everything is not accidental. If she didn''t look like Shen Chu, wouldn''t Gu Beichen choose her as his wife at that time? "Come on, for new discoveries, for foam to join our circle... Cheers!" Li Jinxi shouted wildly. For everyone, this is just an unexpected discovery, but for some people, it is not. When Kruis raised his glass, he not only looked at Jian Mo, but Jian Mo behaved as usual without too much emotional overflow. The whole occasion became more restrained because of the participation of Gu Beichen and Li Yunze, but there was no real formality, but after a while, everyone played again. Because Jane Mo drove home later, she didn''t drink much wine. Except for the first cocktail, she also drank juice in the back. Shen Chu occasionally glances at Jian mo. it is estimated that it is because everyone says that their eyes are very similar to each other... Jian Mo ignores it and doesn''t know it. It''s ridiculous to say that Gu Beichen and Shen Chu are a couple on such an occasion, and her legendary Mrs. Gu is not clear except Li Yunze. Naturally, when everyone joked about Gu Beichen and Shen Chu, no one avoided it. How can Jane describe her mood at the moment? She''s so oppressed and has to pretend to feel ridiculous like nobody else... Originally, she and Gu Beichen are married to each other. What right does she have to take care of Gu Beichen''s emotional world? "Jin Xi, you go on, I''ll go first..." Jian Mo called Li Jin Xi to her side and said. "Let''s go now? What a disappointment?" Li Jinxi skimmed his lips. Jian Mo smiled, "I''m a worker. I don''t want to become a national treasure without beauty sleep tomorrow." She joked, "I''ll go first, you continue..." Li Jinxi was not too reluctant, but picked his eyebrow and said enthusiastically, "someone wants to make a design. I''ll pay attention to it and I''ll fix it for you!" Jane Mo smiled and said with a teasing eyebrow, "if I say I''ve made your friend, will it be too powerful?" "If you want to meet me, I still think you don''t think I''m a friend..." Li Jinxi said with a smile and lifted her big curly hair like seaweed. As soon as Jane Mo heard it, she had the most sincere smile in the evening... Then she got up and said to everyone and left. However, before leaving, if she inadvertently looked at Gu Beichen, who was talking to Shen Chu, the smile on the corner of her mouth was a little stiff Driving the car, Jane Mo didn''t go back to lanzeyuan directly, but walked slowly under the night in Los Angeles. Open the window and let the cold wind in the autumn night rush into the car... Jane Mo shivered uncontrollably, and then closed the window with an astringent smile. At this moment, she felt very pretentious and had never been pretentious before. After a turn, Jian Mo returned to lanze park. Unexpectedly, Maybach, recently opened by Gu Beichen, stopped in the parking space. Jian Mo was a little stunned, but on second thought, Gu Beichen didn''t make sense and came back now... Besides, there was no light in the villa. It was estimated that the car had stopped back before. Thinking like this, Jane Mo opened the door, got out of the car, opened the door and entered the villa. Suddenly "Oh!" The voice overflowed Jane Mo''s throat, and then she was strongly pressed against the door. In an instant, her lips were robbed by the overbearing and rude lips "Hmm..." Jian Mo subconsciously wanted to resist and push away the people who pressed her, but no matter how hard she tried, she couldn''t push away. Gradually, the familiar domineering breath invaded Jane Mo''s nerve, and her action also became silent acceptance from the beginning of resistance to the end. Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo fiercely, and Da Zhang was even more restless. He just felt that all this could not calm the anger in his heart. Jane Mo didn''t cling to Gu Beichen and tangle with him as usual... She didn''t respond, just let him move. Gradually, each other''s breathing became heavy, and finally... Gu Beichen let go of Jian Mo''s numbing lips and tongues. In the dark, Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and his Obsidian like ink pupil overflowed with far-reaching essence light, tightly grabbing all the nerves of Jian mo "Resistance?" The voice of light Yi overflowed the thin lips, with the smell of yin and prey. Jane Mo drooped her eyes and pursed her lips without answering. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes knew a lot and mixed with the black silence in the house... He didn''t speak again, but just looked at Jian Mo who was silent and right. I don''t know how long it took. When Jian Mo gradually breathed heavily because of the frozen air, Gu Beichen sneered: "Jian Mo, are you unhappy?" Being poked into his mind is like being stripped away to let him see the red fruit... Jane Mo secretly bit her teeth, and then slowly raised her eyes, because she has adapted to the darkness, she can clearly see Gu Beichen''s deep eyes as cold as a dead pool. "Should I be happy?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and asked. A provocative smile of publicity and arrogance was timely outlined at the corner of her mouth. "If you think I should be happy, I will be happy." Her words were tinged with uncontrollable sarcasm. Looking at the impeccable smile under the habitual hypocrisy of Jian Mo''s face, Gu Beichen has never been anxious He didn''t expect to meet Jian Mo tonight. Although he knew that Li Jinxi was out of line, he didn''t expect that such an occasion would be called Jian Mo who only had a meal. Ah Chu is around. He subconsciously considers her and ignores Jane mo She forced her face to smile all night. He didn''t know it. At the moment of leaving, although he was talking to ah Chu at that time, he still saw it. After she left, he couldn''t sit still. After motioning to Li Yunze, they gathered with women. They didn''t fit to stay. They both left first. Driving an express train, I feel like returning home all the way But in the end? He''s home. She hasn''t come back yet! He didn''t know if she was wandering at night because she was uncomfortable or sad. He just waited for a few minutes, and he couldn''t wait to go out and find Who knows, just got up and saw the lamp slide through the French window. Kiss her, just at this moment, he wants to kiss her and taste her breath... Ask him why, he doesn''t know! Damn it, I don''t know Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen with burning eyes. The smile on her beautiful face was as usual, but her heart was sad Chu Zixiao''s words didn''t expect to work so quickly. No wonder he wanted to warn her! If you haven''t lost your heart, can you not care so much about her resemblance to Shen Chu? But... No if! "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo''s voice was alienated. "Personally, I don''t feel happy to see my husband making out with other women in front of me..." Her arms hooked Gu Beichen''s neck, her lips almost stuck to his thin lips, and slowly said, "if you can''t be happy, are you..." "Oh", Jian Mo''s words were completely swallowed by Gu Beichen''s thin lips... Instead, for example, he had to kiss wildly and angrily Chapter 103 The violent kiss seemed to vent something. Jian Mo''s subconscious resistance made Gu Beichen completely angry and deepened this emotional kiss Jane Mo resisted for a while. Later, she thought she couldn''t resist anyway, so she simply accepted it. However, with the same cooperation as usual, she is really not in the mood at the moment... Not only is she not in the mood, but also her heart is getting more and more sad. I don''t know when the clothes of the two people spilled all over the floor from the door to the bedroom. Some of them were even torn off, and some were terrible For the first time, Jane Mo was not emotional under Gu Beichen''s attack. The feeling of disharmony in bed made her feel stuffy. Gu Beichen was able to ignore Jian Mo''s lack of cooperation at first, but later lost interest... His eagle eyes looked at Jian Mo under his body, his thin lips pursed a cold straight line, and then walked out with a cold face and went to the bathroom to take a bath. The atmosphere suddenly solidified. Jian Mo leaned over slightly, closed her eyes and tried to do psychological construction for herself. The sound of "Hua la la" from the shower came from the bathroom. The noise fell on Jian Mo''s heart and became heavier and heavier I don''t know how long later, the door of the bathroom rang. Jian Mo turned and looked... Gu Beichen just came out with a bath towel. Unruly short hair is dripping wet and occasionally drops of water fall He has an inverted triangular figure of a famous model, wide shoulders and narrow hips, wheat skin, six abdominal muscles and Mermaid thread... Everything exudes the unique charm of a mature man. Jane Mo took a breath and sat up with the quilt in her arms, "ah Chen, I..." I don''t have anything... For a long time. Not that Jane Mo didn''t want to say, but that she didn''t know what to say after she spoke. She lifted the quilt and got out of bed. She was not shy. She didn''t wear anything... Anyway, in the past two years, she had any "shameless" behavior in front of Gu Beichen. He came forward and hugged Gu Beichen''s solid narrow waist. Jian Mo put his face against his chest and listened to his strong heartbeat. "I''m in a bad mood today..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen''s anxious heart just stagnated, and some stiff throat answered. His cold face was stretched like a carving, because Jian Mo just hugged him with red fruit. His heart beat fiercely, and some parts stood up without backbone at all. There were water beads dripping on Jian Mo''s smooth back. Her body was subconsciously shocked. When there was a trace of urgency in Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes, she said: "slag man''s wife went to the hospital to find Xiaoyue today..." "..." Gu Beichen''s heart suddenly fell from the clouds to the bottom of the valley. Just now, he was eager to hope that Jian Mo was in a bad mood because of the news in the morning, or because of him and Shen Chu in the evening... But it turned out that it was because of Li Xiaoyue. Jun''s face was cold, and a cold sneer spilled over his thin lips: "I said I wanted to help you. Why... Don''t you believe it?" Jian Mo held Gu Beichen and looked up, with the most common smile in the past two years, "ah Chen, you''re the best..." as he said, the man had stood on tiptoe and dropped a soft kiss on his cheek. Gu Beichen''s heart was turbid, and the bath fire was "rubbed" because the gas rose. At present, he kissed Jian Mo fiercely and retreated to bed Because of Jian Mo''s cooperation, even if Gu Beichen clearly knows that she is reluctant to cooperate today, his familiar body and feeling make him out of control in such a bath Night, deep people can not bear to break. Jian Mo was tired of tossing, but Gu Beichen rushed to take a bath When she washed it out, Gu Beichen was already asleep. She skimmed her mouth and went to bed gently. She saw that Gu Beichen''s arm was across the pillow. The whole posture is just the most comfortable one for her to nest in his words on weekdays Looking at Gu Beichen, Jian Mo felt warm and sour. Whether he has her or not in his heart, he is indeed a qualified husband. At least, every time he was with her, he never treated her badly... Even if he fell asleep first, he would leave her the most comfortable position. Lie down slowly. It''s late at night, but Jane Mo doesn''t feel sleepy at all. She fanned her eyes, looked at the faint light hidden in the dark, and could only forcibly suppress the feelings she had just sprouted From the beginning, I knew that she and Gu Beichen were going to divorce. Now Gu Beichen''s only woman who had touched her heart has returned. It is estimated that it will be sooner or later to divorce. Jane Mo closed her eyes, pressed down the bitterness in her heart and forced herself to sleep For the first time, Jian Mo was not awakened by the biological clock, but by Gu Beichen''s burning eyes. Jane Mo fanned her bleary eyes and looked at Gu Beichen and said in a muffled voice, "ah Chen, good morning..." as she said, the man got up and kissed him on his face vaguely, "good morning kiss." Gu Beichen''s original frozen expression gradually cracked. Instead, it was a touch of self-conscious comfort, "don''t go to work today?" There was a hint of banter in the low, magnetic voice. "Go up..." Jane Mo wanted to forget what happened yesterday. As usual, she woke up in Gu Beichen''s words. Soft Nuo was charming and angry. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep, "but it''s almost nine o''clock..." "..." Jane Mo''s head was still a little turbid. When the words "almost nine o''clock" jumped out, she suddenly widened her eyes, and then sat up like a spring, "what time is it?" "Nine o''clock in ten minutes!" Gu Beichen said calmly. "..." Jane Mo stared, then screamed and hurried out of bed. "Why didn''t you call me?" "You usually call me..." Gu Beichen looked innocent. Jane Mo was speechless and choked. "I''m late. There''s no bonus..." she clenched her teeth, stared at Beichen and hurried to wash. However, when he got to the bathroom, he leaned over to the door and looked at Gu Beichen, "eh... You don''t have to go to work today?" "For a group leader, there is no full attendance, so he can be lazy occasionally!" Gu Beichen picked his eyebrows and said. "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "you''re cruel!" She gnashed her teeth and hurried to wash. After everything was cleaned up, Jian Mo kissed Gu Beichen on the face, "bye..." the man then ran away like a gust of wind... Although he clearly knew that the whole attendance was in vain. Gu Beichen was wearing a nightgown. Looking at the back of Jian Mo, the corners of his mouth unknowingly raised a comfortable smile The "buzzing" sound of mobile phone vibration came in time. Gu Beichen converged his deep eyes, took the mobile phone on the bedside table, looked at it and answered the call "Chen Shao, the information of Jinyang is ready!" On the phone, Xiao Jing''s calm voice came. Chapter 104 "I''ll go back to the company in half an hour and inform the executives above the director and the people in charge of the science and technology experience Hall of the meeting at 10:30." Gu Beichen had recovered his usual indifference and calmness when he spoke. There was no superfluous expression on Jun''s face. Xiao Jing answered and arranged. Gu Beichen washed, changed his clothes and went downstairs. Standing in the parking space and looking at the parking space next to him, Gu Beichen involuntarily slightly hooked his thin lips. That kind of light smile just filled the air in an instant... Directly to the bottom of his eyes. Gu Beichen didn''t think about why he was relaxed and happy early in the morning. He just drove to the Emperor Group Susan has prepared coffee, because Gu Beichen is late today and there are some documents piled up in the morning. She just chose the urgent one to sign for him first. "How''s things going with JK?" Gu Beichen asked as he signed. Susan took the signed document and said, "the liquidation documents have been submitted to the court and wait for the summons..." after a slight pause, she continued, "I studied with lawyer Mo last night. Lawyer Mo said that the faster the progress, the better." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered softly and gave it a given. The signature sound of "brush" was particularly loud in the quiet space with only breathing sound. When Gu Beichen dropped the last signature, there was still five minutes to go before the meeting time. He got up, walked outside and explained, "things over JK are subject to Mo Shaochen''s words." "OK." Susan answered and followed out. Gu Beichen went to the elevator. Xiao Jing also came out of the special assistance office and handed him a folder in his hand The elevator door opened with a "Ding". Gu Beichen stepped in and looked at the information of Jinyang. The corners of his mouth slightly hooked an arc. "The samples this afternoon will try to get them to bring this batch." "Long Shao has asked someone to do it..." Xiao Jing hooked the corner of his mouth and flattered with a face. How did Gu Chen look back at Xiao Jing People can''t hear the emotion in the light voice. Xiao Jing immediately stopped smiling, then looked at Gu Beichen bitterly, "Chen Shao, although I was brought out by long Shao... But if I follow you, you have to be responsible for me... Can''t you return me again?" Gu Beichen snorted coldly, "responsible for you? I can''t afford to..." Xiao Jing "hey hey" smiled, "Chen Shao, I''ve followed you since I came here. I have absolutely no second thoughts about you." Are you kidding me? The four young boys in Los Angeles are one. Long Shao cares about people. If he has two hearts... He doesn''t know how to die when he turns back. What''s more... It''s also good to follow Chen Shao. He''s black and white and energetic. It''s also suitable for a talent with both literature and martial arts like him, ha ha! When the elevator arrived at the meeting room floor, Gu Beichen went out when the elevator door opened... People entered the meeting room, and the executives "brush" stood up. "President!" Gu Beichen sat down in the first place. Xiao Jing sat down beside him and listened to him calmly: "this afternoon is the second selection of the bidding committee of the science and technology city. Pay special attention when retaining samples... I don''t want any mistakes." After a slight pause, he continued, "the company doesn''t look at the size and ability of the other company, but the strength..." Executives and the people in charge of the science and technology city were breathless. They listened to Gu Beichen and were occasionally asked questions. They were all answering with their hearts But at the end of the meeting, we finally explored a possibility that can not be mentioned on the table... That is, what does the president mean in his words is to support those small companies? Among the companies that entered the finals this time, there are only three small companies. It seems that Xiao tezhu just mentioned Jinyang? "Alas, director Wang, does the president mean that Jinyang is going to be shortlisted?" "Who knows, but I feel like it too..." "Anyway, you can be selected into three companies, and you can add Jinyang." Someone met calmly. Director Wang frowned, "but... Jinyang has had a lawsuit before." "It''s estimated that he didn''t dare to make small moves in front of the emperor. I went to see the samples yesterday. The quality is good. They should have made great efforts to get out this time..." Director Wang thought, "it''s OK for the three to have Jinyang." In the afternoon, the hot sun was in the sky, and the autumn tiger came, which made people feel that they had returned to summer. The bidding of emperor technology city attracted the attention of all media. Finally, Jinyang electronics, a large-scale Xianghua electronics and mofeng electronics, which are slightly better than Jinyang, were shortlisted at the same time. Suddenly, the whole city of Los Angeles was in an uproar It''s understandable that Xianghua was shortlisted. As a new company, Mo Feng is also a dark horse. In addition, he has a strong foundation... But Jinyang had a case before, and finally was shortlisted, which made everyone look at him. Because Jinyang was shortlisted for the final material supply of the science and Technology City, Jinyang suddenly rose... What many people didn''t see before, they also threw olive branches at it one after another. Jian Mo looks at the news and guesses how Gu Beichen will toss Jinyang You can''t finally make him happy enough and suddenly don''t want him again? Even so, although the loss of emperor group is very hearty, Jinyang still makes a lot of money because of the effect. After taking the mobile phone, Jian Mo sent a message to Gu Beichen: ah Chen, are you sure you''re helping me abuse the slag man instead of paving a road to the peak for the slag man? Mr. G: wait for a good play for a week at most. Jane Mo didn''t expect Gu Beichen to reply so quickly. Looking at the above words, she was unconsciously sweet and immediately flattered by sending a text message: OK, if the effect is good, I''ll give my husband a massage! Mr. G: massage little brother? "..." Jian Mo felt that he really couldn''t have a good chat with Gu Beichen. No matter what he said, he definitely thought with his lower body. Jane Mo gnashing her teeth: I don''t mind if you don''t lift it after you don''t pass the skill! Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s reply with a warning. He couldn''t help raising his lips and didn''t reply to the message again. "Tut Tut, it''s so funny..." Lin tut tut tut to the south. Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen with a slight frown, "Shen Chu?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but he suddenly felt cold in his heart... And then he frowned secretly. The long owl''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly and emitted two sharp cold lights, "if you still have ideas about Shen Chu, you can solve the matter of Jian Mo as soon as possible..." "Boss, our third brother is the love Saint..." Lin Nan said with a smile, "the red flag at home doesn''t fall, and the colored flag outside the home is floating." "Jane Mo is a good woman. Don''t hurt her if you can." Li Yunze spoke up and thought of the two leaving in the middle of the party last night. Gu Beichen looked a little wrong and was worried, "don''t look back. You''ll suffer if you don''t fall at both ends." Gu Beichen was slightly stunned, and then fell into silence. The Dragon owl and Li Yunze looked at each other, and they both frowned involuntarily. If the third brother had thought about Jian Mo, it would be fine if Shen Chu didn''t come back... But now... Shen Chu is back. Chapter 105 "I heard from the hospital in the morning that a woman made trouble with Li Xiaoyue yesterday. I heard that Jian Mo was also scratched..." Li Yunze suddenly asked, "is she all right?" Gu Beichen frowned in an instant, "I... didn''t notice?" After going back yesterday, they were angry. Later, although they were harmonious, Jian Mo didn''t show it, and he didn''t find it Li Yunze sighed quietly, looked at each other with the Dragon owl and said, "it''s estimated that it''s no big deal..." he said so, thinking that Gu Beichen didn''t care about Jian mo. If the same thing falls on Shen Chu, he can find even the smallest scar Thinking like this, Li Yunze and long Xiao both feel that Gu Beichen is not interested in Jian Mo, and their divorce is probably sooner or later. Lin Nan played with the lighter in his hand and asked, "third brother, it seems that you have been too interested in Jinyang recently?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were suddenly deep and said coldly, "the clown jumping beam..." his words fell, and the eagle''s eyes were already dark. Lin Nannan looked at Gu Beichen and opened his mouth with a little consternation... In his cognition, the third is rarely so interested in a small company. The most important thing is that his expression is too terrible at the moment?! How do you feel... Jinyang seems to have dug his ancestral grave? Gu Beichen didn''t notice the change of his expression. He just thought that last night, er Jianmo said that slag man''s wife went to find Li Xiaoyue... At this moment, he combined with Li Yunze''s words, thinking that if Jian Mo was hurt, it must be the woman who did it. Suddenly, the whole handsome face was full of haze. Looking at Gu Beichen''s anger, the Dragon owl''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, and in a flash... The strange emotion disappeared. It seems that... The third man can''t figure out who is in his heart now. Jinyang electronics has climbed up to the emperor group, and one fifth of the products of the high-tech experience hall in Nanhai will be provided by Jinyang Electronics... The industry said that if the business is completed, Jinyang Electronics will be possible to be financed and listed. Such news, the direct heat lasted for a week, and gave Jinyang electronics a free advertisement. Jin Shuman''s eyes were slightly picked and arrogantly swept the executives in the conference room. "Everyone is watching me closely, and the emperor''s God is also holding me tight. As long as it''s good, everyone''s dividend at the end of the year is indispensable." As soon as the executives heard this, they were all beaming with joy and hurried to agree. "Break up!" Jin Shuman''s words fell, glanced sideways at Yang Ziyu, got up and left the conference room. Yang Ziyu followed Jin Shuman into the general manager''s office and looked at some fat wife. He was good-looking and had some evil on his face, but he hid very well and quickly poured water for her. "Wife, drink water." Jin Shuman snorted coldly, "Yang Ziyu, to be honest, did you find that cheap woman again?" "I didn''t..." Yang Ziyu looked sad. "Last time, she framed me... Later, she said that as long as I slept with her, I wouldn''t be the other party''s lawyer, so..." he smiled. "Isn''t this for our company?" Upon hearing this, Jin Shuman picked up a folder and threw it at Yang Ziyu. "Greedy and high sounding... What did you do last night?" Then he took out a photo from the drawer and threw it on his face. Yang Ziyu was surprised, but he still had the courage to pick up a picture. Seeing that he and Li Xiaoyue pulled outside her apartment, he immediately explained: "I passed by there yesterday, and this woman threatened me... What did she say? She aborted because of me and wanted to sue me!" Then he hurried forward, "wife, you know... She''s a lawyer. I''m good to talk about giving her money for private chat, but this bitch doesn''t want to!" "Really?" Jin Shuman asked with an eyebrow. "Of course it''s true..." Yang Ziyu quickly shook Jin Shuman''s hand. "Wife, I love you most. How can other women compare with you?" Then he kissed her on the face. Jin Shuman snorted coldly, but there was already a coaxed smile at the bottom of his eyes Suddenly, the door of the office was pushed open without warning, and the secretary came in in a panic. "Is there no basic politeness?" Jin Shuman''s good son was disturbed and immediately yelled. The secretary was stunned at first, then hurriedly handed the fax in his hand to Jin Shuman, "general manager, it''s not good... There was a problem with the samples sent to the emperor, and the warehouse was sealed up by the police." "What?" Jin Shuman raised her voice in an instant. The Secretary frowned and hurriedly said, "the companies we ordered these days have also come, saying that Jinyang is shoddy and suspected of commercial fraud..." she swallowed, "the people from the commercial investigation department have also come." When Jin Shuman and Yang Ziyu heard this, they were stunned at first, and then both hurried to see what was going on The general manager and deputy general manager of Jinyang electronics suddenly spread in the media because of commodity fraud. At the last moment, Jinyang was still in the cloud. The next second, the God reversal story of both the principal and deputy managers under investigation shocked the business circle in Los Angeles. It''s not just the commodity problem this time. Then, Jinyang''s false accounts and illegal labor contracts broke out in recent years... Compared with the last case, because it was the emperor group, few lawyers were willing to come forward. However, in the next week or so, Jinyang will go public and suddenly become an asset freeze and face liquidation... It makes people dare to cheat the emperor group in a moment. It''s really tired of living. Li Xiaoyue looked at the report and burst into tears in an instant Although she specializes in criminal defense, she studies law in the end. She knows very well that this time... Yang Ziyu can''t expect to come out in ten years. Jian Mo was watching the news when the mobile phone rang. Seeing that it was Li Xiaoyue, she hurried to pick it up "Girl, have you seen the news?" Jane Mo smiled, "look... Are you relieved now?" As she spoke, her heart was filled with laughter. Gu Beichen said to give him a week. Sure enough, it was a week. Li Xiaoyue''s eyes turned red at the moment, "HMM..." thinking of Yang Ziyu pestering her again last night, she said she was not afraid that he would burst out those photos. They were all fake. Comforted a friend, Jane Mo hung up the phone and sent a text message to Gu Beichen: husband, thank you, kiss! Gu Beichen replied after a while: remember to go back to "massage" in the evening! Jane Mo suddenly remembered the last message, and her face turned red in an instant... After sipping her lips, she replied: it''s too early to mention benefits now? Who knows what will happen in ten years?! Gu Beichen slightly lowered his eyes and looked at Jian Mo''s cheating text message. Ying''s eyes were steep, deep and bottomless... Yang Ziyu wanted to come out after he was in prison? I''m afraid... There''s no chance. After slightly hooking an evil radian in the corner of his mouth, Gu Beichen replied to the past: where ten years later? Jane Mo didn''t understand the meaning of this short interest, but she didn''t think much. She just flushed and sent a text message to Gu Beichen: I''ll cook in the evening and wait for you to come back After sending, Jane Mo received her mobile phone and decided not to read Gu Beichen''s reply... Unfortunately, she obviously thought too much and didn''t reply until she got off work. However, this did not affect Jian Mo''s mood... It will be two years between the two people, and he has always taken the initiative in that regard. If... Their time has entered the countdown, leaving each other a night without any constraints is also a kind of memory, isn''t it? At the thought of this, Jane Mo''s face reddened Chapter 106 Jane Mo bought a lot of vegetables when she passed the supermarket after work. When she got home, she plunged into the kitchen and began to toss Candlestick, Western food, red wine... Jian Mo smiled at his achievements. Look at the time, it''s already eight o''clock, but Gu Beichen didn''t come back... He frowned secretly, and Jian Mo waited until nine o''clock, but he still didn''t come back. The original enthusiasm slowly subsided while waiting. Jian Mo sat on the sofa and bored dialing the TV The silent picture is constantly changing. It is particularly treacherous in the huge villa where the light is not on but the candlestick is lit. Jian Mo holds his mobile phone in his hand and wants to send a message to Gu Beichen several times to ask if he can come back, but she finally resists Slowly lying on the sofa, Jane Mo threw away the mobile phone remote control. She didn''t want to let herself think about it. She took the mobile phone and planned to see the building circle. It''s OK not to surf the Internet. I saw Gu Beichen''s news as soon as I went on the Internet. The red and bold title of "Chen Shao''s mysterious girlfriend was startled, suspected of spending a night together a week ago" deeply hurt Jian Mo''s eyes. Jian Mo opened the news headline, and Shen Chu''s side face stood out... The location was on the Bank of the Los Angeles River. Gu Beichen gently hugged her, and they hugged each other like thousands of lovers on the romantic Valentine''s beach. Although none of the next photos captured the whole face of Shen Chu, the photos of her holding hands with Gu Beichen and even kissing formed a group of romantic pictures. Something stung the position of the heart... As soon as the nose was sour, there was a layer of fragile water mist in the eyes. Jane Mo smiled with self mockery at the corners of her mouth. Under the light of TV, she was particularly lonely and lonely... She woke up before she officially started to dream. It''s good... The more you save, the deeper you fall, and the only pain you will finally be yourself. Jane Mo withdrew from the Internet and pressed out her mobile phone. The corners of her mouth tried to smile, but the tears in her eyes could not be controlled. She is not a person who likes to cry, but recently it seems that her tears are very low Get up, turn off the TV, turn on the light, blow out the burning candlestick on the wooden table, pull out the candle, throw it into the trash can, and pour out all the cooled dinner. Before everything returns to cooking, it''s like waiting tonight has never happened. Looking around, Jian Mo finally smiled at herself and turned to go upstairs Night, there is loneliness, there is warmth under romance. Shen Chu hooked Gu Beichen''s neck and gently kissed him on his handsome cheek, "Beichen, shall we get married?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "I haven''t divorced yet..." "When you get divorced, we''ll get married!" Shen Chu said with an eyebrow. Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "did you know I would divorce?" Shen Chu put his cheek on Gu Beichen''s chest and said in a gentle voice: "Jinxi said that you got married because of shares... This wife was just used to cope with it." "Well..." Gu Beichen answered, but he suddenly felt a little stuffy in his heart. Shen Chu suddenly raised his eyes. Because of his smile, his big and bright eyes bent into crescent moon, which was as charming as the bright moon in the ink sky at the moment, "in that case, you will not let me become a person in your gossip for her." She smiled firmly with confidence all over her face. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at Shen Chu deeply and looked at her smiling eyes. At this moment, he thought of Jian mo... He frowned slightly and killed such emotion in the cradle. "No..." Gu Beichen opened his thin lips gently and opened his mouth gently, low and magnetic. The smile on Shen Chu''s face became bigger. She was already good-looking. Such a smile almost put out the tide of the river in Los Angeles. In the distance, Li Yunze and long Xiao sat in a bar on the bank and looked at the two people by the river. They both looked a little strange. "Some can''t understand the third." Li Yunze frowned, "before, I always thought he was moved by Jian Mo, but as soon as Shen Chu came back... It seems that I was dazzled before..." Then he looked back at the Dragon owl, "but judging from the things in Jinyang, he seems to have done a little too hard." The Dragon owl coldly took back his sight, but said coldly: "I can''t see the emotional things clearly, so I can only suffer by myself." "Experience?" Li Yunze smiled. The Dragon owl was cold and Li Yunze immediately stopped talking ¡­¡­ Jane Mo couldn''t sleep over and over. She kept brainwashing herself. Now her mother''s operation has been settled anyway. In the future, her working salary, her mother and she have no pressure at all. Even if she divorced Gu Beichen, it''s no difference. However, the more she thinks so, the more sad she is The next day, Jane Mo was awakened by a gentle sound. She slowly opened her eyes, and the purpose was to see Gu Beichen staring at her "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo hummed, and her eyes closed again. "I dreamed early in the morning. I seem to see you." "..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, his thin lips became a straight line, and his cold, carved face was also tight. Jian Mo was grateful that her eyes were too sharp. She suddenly opened her eyes and fanned innocently before realizing that Gu Beichen was not an illusion. Suddenly sat up, Jane Mo was a little surprised, "Why are you here?" "I''m not here. Where should I be?" Gu Beichen hissed coldly. "But you last night..." halfway through, Jane froth her mouth. Gu Beichen''s cold convergent eyes, "what happened to my son last night?" Jane Mo drooped her eyes and lips, secretly feigning in her heart: Mingming was with Shen Chu last night, and I didn''t return my text message. Why did she come back early in the morning? I think so, but Jian Mo naturally won''t say it. She just raised her eyes and smiled, "just think... If you don''t come back at night, you won''t be here in the morning, so it''s a little strange." "Is there a problem when I come back today?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows, and the eagle''s eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply and asked. Jane Mo fanned her eyelashes and didn''t understand what he meant... Isn''t it strange to come back in the morning? Looking at her vacant expression, Gu Beichen turned and went to the dressing room with a cold hiss. For Jane Mo, I don''t know what day it is today. She seems indifferent and dissatisfied that he didn''t come back last night Yesterday, I didn''t reply to the text message because something happened. After it was solved, I met Shen Chu. If she didn''t come back, the woman not only didn''t have a text message, but also looked indifferent and used to it now Obviously, this kind of her is what he has been used to and likes in the past two years, but now she looks dazzling. At the moment when Gu Beichen entered the dressing room, the disguise on her face disintegrated and cracked. She laughed at herself and got up to go to the bathroom to wash. When she came out, she just saw Gu Beichen open the door of the bedroom and go out. She just wanted to call him. The words came to her mouth, but she swallowed them back. I changed my clothes bitterly, and the mobile phone rang in time Jane Mo took her cell phone and saw that it was Dr. Wang. She suddenly "clicked" in her heart. The hospital had never called her so early. Jane Mo swallowed it secretly and hurriedly picked it up. "Dr. Wang, what''s the matter with my mother?" Dr. Wang was silent and didn''t know what to say. He just said in a frozen voice, "Xiao Jane, come to the hospital..." Jane Mo listened to Dr. Wang''s heavy voice and dared to delay. Without thinking about it, she grabbed the bag and ran downstairs. Gu Beichen took something out of his study and heard the door slam shut. Then, the roar of the car starting engine came. While Jian Mo drove away, Gu Beichen''s face was as black as the bottom of a pot Chapter 107 Jane Mo almost flew to the hospital. She followed her footsteps in a hurry. She gasped heavily, and her heart was more dignified and complex "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." When she heard someone answer, Jane Mo couldn''t wait to open the door of the doctor''s office and walked in, "Dr. Wang, what did you mean on the phone just now?" When Dr. Wang saw that it was Jian Mo, his obvious face looked at her with some dignity, motioned her to sit first, looked at the time, and then said, "wait, I''ll talk to you after my room tour..." Jane Mo couldn''t wait, but she nodded, "OK, I''ll wait for you here." Dr. Wang nodded, then took the stethoscope out of the office In the small office, Jane Mo is on pins and needles... Just now Dr. Wang said to come over at noon, but she can''t wait until then. After taking out his mobile phone and sending a text message to Xiang night to ask for leave, Jian Mo could only wait anxiously... After waiting for an hour, Dr. Wang came back from the ward inspection. "Dr. Wang..." Jian Mo couldn''t bear it. As soon as Dr. Wang pushed the door in, he stood up. Dr. Wang nodded to her, then sat down opposite Jane Mo, looked a little dignified and said, "there are some problems with the heart donor..." Jane Mo''s heart "rubbed" and mentioned it to her throat. She asked almost oppressively, "what''s the situation?" She thought she could calm down, but it was obvious that her voice trembled. Dr. Wang didn''t seem to know what to say. After thinking about it, he raised his eyes and said, "there was no treatment for the other party''s uremia, because the family''s kidneys were not suitable for her transplantation." Jane nodded. She had known about it last time. "But..." Dr. Wang sighed lightly, "when the patient was preparing to give up treatment, who knew that another family was in urgent need of money. I heard that they got a sum of money and were willing to make kidney source matching..." In the following story, Jian Mo doesn''t seem to have to continue to listen. It''s inevitable that the patient who originally wanted to donate his heart changed her kidney with her money, and then began to move towards health. Seeing that Jian Mo had guessed, Dr. Wang sighed and didn''t know what to say... As a doctor, he naturally hoped that every patient would be well. Although it''s a pity, it can''t be because Jane Mo''s mother also hopes that another patient can''t see well. "The other party said he would try to pay back the money..." Dr. Wang sighed softly. "My side will pay close attention to whether there is a suitable heart." Jane Mo''s face was full of lost complex emotions. She was sad and just nodded silently... She hoped that her mother would wake up as soon as possible, but she could not hope that others would die quickly for this reason. Dragging her heavy body, Jane Mo got into the car... Sitting in the car for a long time, she didn''t start the car, but tears filled her eyes in an instant. "Susu" gushed out, just like a burst levee. She couldn''t stop it. "Woo..." Jane Mo finally got out of control and began to cry loudly on the steering wheel. She was so sad that she cried her body. She could hardly bear the feeling that she had given hope but ended up in hell. I don''t know how long she cried, but Jian Mo finally stopped her sad mood... But the depressed mood in her heart couldn''t be stirred up. The pleasant mobile phone ring came at the right time. Jian Mo opened his eyes and picked up the mobile phone. Seeing that it was calling late, he picked it up and put it in his ear, "late?" "Sister Mo, there''s news from the emperor, saying that the club design comparison is scheduled for next Monday..." looking at the email at night, she said, "ask the designer to bring the floor plan and 3D effect drawing, and inform the participants to go to the meeting room on the 32nd floor of the emperor headquarters at 3 p.m." Jian Mo looked at the time and said, "well, ok... I know." I heard that Jian Mo''s voice was a little grumbling. Xiang night asked with concern, "sister Mo, are you uncomfortable? Your voice sounds strange..." Jane Mo swallowed slightly, "well," said in a voice, "I have a cold. It''s all right... We''ll meet at the gate of the emperor at 2:30 in the afternoon." She said, explaining what she needed to bring. He said "Oh" to the evening and hung up without saying anything. Jane Mo calmed down her mood and looked at the hospital through the window. She was very sad, but what can she do? Now, I can only accept this situation... Looking forward to a heart suitable for my mother. At 2:30 p.m., when Jane Mo stopped the car, she saw Xiang night looking around with her notebook bag and a handbag... Seeing her arrive, she quickly raised her hand with a smile. "Sister Mo, do you have a better cold?" Asked Xiang evening. Jane Mo nodded, took the handbag, looked at the contents, and went into the emperor with Xiang night Xiang night was his first visit to the imperial headquarters building. As soon as he entered, he was shocked by the style inside. "Alas, there are so many office buildings, and the company has only more than 30 floors. The imperial headquarters building is only 79 floors, which is really incomparable..." "Hello, I''m from Xiangyu engineering company. I''m here to attend the meeting of comparing drafts in the club." Jane Mo went to the front desk and said. The front desk originally hung her head to tidy up things. When she looked up, she was slightly shocked... Jane Mo didn''t expect that it was the front desk when she came to deliver fast food that day. The receptionist''s attitude changed significantly this time, "please wait a moment, I''ll list you..." she said. She hurried to find out Xiangyu''s listing and gave it to Jian Mohe Xiangwan, and sincerely said, "come on!" Jane Mo nodded with a smile, took the tag, put it on and went to the elevator "Tut Tut, a big company is a big company. The front desk is so warm and friendly." Sigh again at night. Jane Mo took a look at Xiang night and didn''t want to break the child''s innocent world. When they arrived at the meeting room, they found that more than 40 people participated in the competition... That is to say, almost three companies competed for the design of the first floor, and the competition was a little fierce. "It is said that the Emperor may hand over the overall design of phase VI of Yujing lake to one or two of them..." "The sixth phase of Yujing lake is so big that it will be handed over to one or two?" There was consternation. "I''ve also heard of it. I don''t know the details yet..." the man whispered, "anyway, whether it''s true or false, it''s good to win the club design first." Jian Mohe sat down in the empty seat at night. Xiang night was already a little excited. But he thought he couldn''t lose face to the company. He could only bear to whisper, "sister Mo, I''m a little nervous." Jane Mo looked back at her and whispered, "me too..." He swallowed it in the evening and gently pulled lajianmo''s sleeve, "sister Mo, you must be steady." "Good night!" Jane Mo said with a smile, "today is just a meeting. Isn''t it next Monday?" "Yes..." Xiang evening was a little relaxed. "I was nervous and forgot." While chatting with each other noisily and hypocritically in the conference room, suddenly, the door of the conference room was pushed open from the outside... Suddenly, an awe inspiring breath hit, and everyone subconsciously shut their mouths and looked at the door Gu Beichen took the lead in stepping in with one hand and handsome face indifferently... Behind him, followed by Xiao Jing and several people in charge of the club. Everyone was surprised. Everyone didn''t expect that Gu Beichen would personally preside over the meeting before the comparison! Chapter 108 Gu Beichen sat down under the gaze of the public without half an expression on his cold, carved face. If the eagle''s eyes inadvertently slipped over Jian mo... It was only one eye and took back his sight. Jane Mo''s heart "cluttered" inexplicably. She always felt that Gu Beichen''s eyes were full of anger... However, because she was too fast, she felt that she thought too much. Xiang night sat behind Jian Mo, secretly glanced at Bei Chen, then looked at Jian Mo and sipped at the corner of her lower lip... She just seemed to see Chen less looking at sister Mo? Isn''t she dazzled? "Some people should get the wind. In the design comparison draft of the club, one or two will participate in the design of all model houses in phase VI of Yujing Lake..." Gu Beichen said gently with thin lips. Hearing the "Yujing Lake", Jane Mo darkened her sight at the moment, as if she was afraid of what others might see. She quickly lowered her eyes, collected the sadness from the bottom of her eyes, and subconsciously clenched her hand. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil fell on Jian Mo''s face when she dropped her eyes, and then calmly slipped through the crowd. Looking at the surprises on Jian Mo''s face, he continued without changing his face, "it will be finalized due to its private nature, and it is required to highlight the characteristics..." The companies participating in the draft comparison kept silent and looked at Gu Beichen. The atmosphere didn''t dare to breathe "I''m looking forward to drawing lots for the first floor of emperor Mo''s company," Gu said later Jian Moxing''s eyes and Gu Beichen were facing up in the air. They were not cowardly. On the contrary, when his words fell, they were full of self-confidence and provocation. Gu Beichen calmly took back his sight, "the last one in this comparison will lose the opportunity to cooperate with the emperor again in the future." The sound of "wow" came out of control, and everyone looked at each other. Unexpectedly, this time someone had the opportunity to win the design opportunity of the whole phase VI model house by Yujing lake, and someone would lose the opportunity to cooperate with emperor group. Jane Mo pursed her lips and clenched her hands consciously. She didn''t take care of Beichen again... What did he mean? Do you look down on her or something? First give her a chance to participate in the competition, and then trample her to death? Xiangwan was also dignified. She looked at Jian Mo, who had a bad face, and slightly bit her lower lip... I felt that Gu Beichen''s words were completely aimed at Xiangyu. Gu Beichen said a few more words and then left with Xiao Jing. There was no half expression change on his face from beginning to end. His indifference made people feel cold. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s lonely and cold figure. Inexplicably, she felt a little uncomfortable Shang Junhao, the first-class designer of the imperial design department, was responsible for the design comparison. After Gu Beichen left, he roughly reminded the matters needing attention, and then asked everyone to draw the floor. Jian Mo drew the design of the 18th floor of the top floor. Because it is the top floor, there are some chicken ribs in the design. "What''s wrong with the 18th floor?" Muttered to the evening. Jane Mo didn''t think that no matter which floor is for the emperor, what they want is their different characteristics, so they will separate 18 companies... She doesn''t have the pressure of previous limitations, just be bold to do it. Gu Beichen stood in front of the French window in the top floor office, and the eagle''s eyes looked down slightly... Just at a glance, he saw Jian Mo wearing white shirts and beige slim pants from the loose crowd. He didn''t need to attend such a meeting at all, but he went there by magic at that time... He was angry because the woman hurried away from him in the morning and took some revenge for public and private affairs to preside over the meeting! Most importantly, he thought that if he appeared in front of her, she should be able to remember what day it was today "Drop" cut through the dignified office because of the smell overflowing from Gu Beichen, and then came Susan''s voice: "Chen Shao, Miss Jane hit the 18th floor!" Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned his sword eyebrow, and then made a sound of "um". "Chen Shao," Susan hesitated slightly and then asked, "need..." "Are you idle?" Gu Beichen indifferently interrupted Susan''s words. Susan gave a slight pause and said calmly and effectively, "OK, I see." Then she waited for Gu Beichen to answer and cut off the inside line. Then she looked at Xiao Jing and shrugged, "Chen Shao has always been clear about public and private. It is estimated that even if you give Jian Mo a chance this time, it is also to attack her!" Xiao Jingshen sighed and shook his head. "If the same thing falls on Miss Shen..." he didn''t go on, but exchanged clear eyes with Susan. ¡­¡­ After returning to the company, Jian Mo did not worry about the design of the club, but first made the final modification and finalization of the design drawing of Chu Tang Law Institute "Mo Mo, don''t you get off work yet?" Ding Dang packed up his things and asked, "it''s almost eight o''clock." "I''m going to finalize the design of Chu Tang today," Jian Mo said without raising his head. "I''m going to finish the design of the emperor''s club in the next few days." Ding Dang listened and came over. "Don''t put too much pressure on yourself..." they came back from the meeting. Xiang night had conveyed Gu Beichen''s meaning. "Anyway, Xiangyu could not enter the emperor''s eyes. If we can win, we will make a profit. If we can''t, we won''t lose." Jane Mo raised her head, shrugged her shoulders and said helplessly, "do your best!" "Well... Don''t be too late." Ding Dang asked again with concern, "if you''re going to work overtime, I''ll order you takeout?" "No," said Jane Mo, "it should be almost ready. I''ll eat it later." "OK..." Ding Dang answered, greeted Jane Mo and left. After watching Ding Dang turn around, Jian Mo starts to make the final modification again... Xu knows Chu Zixiao''s reason. She always feels a little dissatisfied with the part of his office, and the minor part has been modified several times. As time goes by, Jian Mo draws a plan on paper with a drawing pen while making modifications on the computer The quiet space is full of dead silence. Only occasionally press the mouse and pen to upload subtle sounds on the drawing paper. Maybe it''s too quiet. Such a voice is particularly treacherous in such a large space. The sound of "Di" came suddenly. Xu was so absorbed that he was suddenly surprised. He subconsciously looked at the mobile phone on the table, then put down his pen, took the mobile phone and opened the text message Mr. G: where is it? Jane Mo frowned slightly. She didn''t know what psychology was, so she quickly edited the text message and sent it. But when she reacted, it was too late In order not to be looked down upon by some people, I plan to spend all night in the company! Jian Mo looked at her angry text message and twitched at the corners of her mouth. Suddenly, she shrunk her mouth... After a while, she didn''t wait for Gu Beichen''s reply. She threw her mobile phone and murmured, "what''s so great..." Jane Mo snorted. Because Gu Beichen''s sudden text message interrupted some inspiration, she simply got up and went to the tea room to make a cup of coffee to refresh herself. "Pedal, pedal, pedal..." Suddenly, outside came the rhythmic and steady footsteps, which were particularly loud in the quiet night. Jian Mo''s subconscious heart lifted up and took the prepared coffee out of the tea room with a slightly coagulated look. There was a trace of tension in her eyes... I don''t know who would come to the company so late? Just when her heart was raised to her throat because of instinct, when she saw the man at the door, she suddenly widened her eyes, "Why are you here?" Chapter 109 Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was so indifferent. The eagle glanced at Jian Mo and came in, "let''s see how some people try..." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, then turned away and went to her work. Gu Beichen walked over and asked coldly, "have you eaten yet?" Jane Mo doesn''t know why Gu Beichen came to the company at this time. She secretly rejoices that it''s late and there''s probably no one in the whole office building. "I......" Jian Mo just said a word, then looked up at Gu Beichen''s cold and deep eyes, swallowed it secretly, and said, "I''ve eaten it." "I haven''t eaten yet!" "Huh?" Jane didn''t react for a while. Gu Beichen looked cold. "Clean up after work and go to eat with me." Jian Mo understood what he meant. "Chen Shao wants to find someone to accompany him to dinner. I think many people are willing to?" She blinked meaningfully. Gu Beichen''s face sank more and more, "but it seems... Chen Shao''s wife is only you!" "..." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and suddenly wanted to pour the coffee in her hand on Gu Beichen''s face. Shit, now you think she''s his wife? Who was it that hugged a woman by the Los Angeles River last night? Gu Beichen glanced at the still open notebook, gently opened his thin lips and said indifferently, "I''ll give you two minutes to clean up." Jian moxin knew that there was no chance to continue. Considering that the design draft of Chu Tang Law Institute was still a little unfinished, he felt some regret, but he had to turn off the computer and clean up the design drawings. With a crash, a design drawing was accidentally swept to the ground... Jian Mo subconsciously picked it up, but the design drawing has fallen into Gu Beichen''s slender and powerful hands. Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and looked down on the line of small characters at the bottom of the design drawing... When he saw the words "plane design drawing of Chu Tang law firm", his thin lips coldly hooked a mocking smile and handed the drawing to Jian mo. Jian Mo suddenly sank to Gu Beichen''s deep and bottomless eyes... That feeling was like he was guilty of being a thief. "Well... I actually..." Jian Mo subconsciously wanted to explain, but she felt that she had made a misunderstanding about things that clearly didn''t need to be explained, so she simply gritted her teeth and said, "this is something that must be thrown out today." "Hum!" Gu Beichen sneered and turned away. There was no too much expression on Jun''s face. At this moment, Jane Mo was not sure what Beichen thought. She hurried to carry her computer bag and followed her In fact, from the moment Gu Beichen appeared, Jane Mo felt something wrong. Don''t say that Gu Beichen doesn''t need her to accompany him when he wants to eat. Even if he wants her to accompany him today, according to his superior characteristics, he calls her in the past. Jian Mo didn''t drive. He directly entered Gu Beichen''s car. Xiao Jing wasn''t there. He drove it himself. "Ah Chen, why are you so late and suddenly think of asking me for dinner?" Jane Mo felt that Gu Beichen was angry because of the design drawing, so she could only lick her face and talk first. "I didn''t eat that meal last night. I''ll make it up today." Gu Beichen spoke coldly. At the thought of last night, Jane Mo was a little depressed, but her face just instantly returned to normal, "how about going back to make... Next bowl of noodles so late?" "Eat out!" Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, "you pay the bill." "..." Jian Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "it will be exposed..." hearing Gu Beichen''s cold hiss, she hurried to say, "I don''t want to turn back. Someone said that my design won because I got into the bed of the emperor''s president." "Win?" Gu Beichen smiled and laughed mercilessly, "do you know which two companies are the same as you in the 18th floor?" He looked at Jian Mo and mocked more and more, "harchitects and CCD." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she suddenly widened her eyes. At the same time, she couldn''t help crying how she met the two most famous architectural design firms in Los Angeles. Gu Beichen stopped in the parking space of a French restaurant at the right time, "besides... You''ve been in bed with the president of the emperor when you participate in the competition!" Then, his thin lips showed a shallow smile. This time, it was not ridicule, but ridicule. Jane Mo was very upset. She looked at the restaurant next to her and didn''t want to get off. One is because of designing her opponent, and the other is because she doesn''t want to be photographed even though it''s late The co pilot''s door has been opened. Gu Beichen picked his eyebrow and said, "get off!" "No..." Jian Mo said somewhat willfully. "I''m not in a beautiful mood. I don''t want to eat with you." "Then go to bed with me?" Gu Beichen said, "if so, I don''t mind not eating a meal at night. However... It is said that the design drawings that someone must finish today are estimated to be available tomorrow." The implication is to go home and go straight to bed. Jian Mo''s intention to bring the computer back now is ignored by Gu Beichen... If she gets out of the car for dinner, she may be merciful and let her continue to finish her work. On balance, Jian Mo looked around and saw no one. She gritted her teeth and got out of the car. I don''t know if it''s because it''s too late. There''s no one in the restaurant except the waiter "I packed the field!" Gu Beichen opened his mouth while sitting down and taking the meal list. As soon as Jian Mo heard this, she suddenly breathed out, thinking that she would not be found... But this happiness was reflected in her eyes, and she was instantly shocked by Gu Beichen''s words and forgot her reaction. "It''s not expensive," Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes pulled up from the meal list and looked at Jian Mo, "this time is 100000!" "..." Jian Mo reacted for a while and just remembered that Gu Beichen meant that she would pay for the dinner tonight. "Ha ha, it''s too extravagant to rent a room or something... Although we should keep a low profile, we can''t be so extravagant and wasteful, can''t we?" Gu Beichen just ordered the meal. Ignoring Jian Mo, he said to the waiter, "Ausone, who has opened the bottle for 11 years." "OK, Chen Shao!" The waiter answered respectfully, "please wait a minute." The words were backward. Without referring to any opinions of Jian Mo, the man with the meal card left. Jane Mo followed Gu Beichen and knew more or less about these luxury things. 11 years of Ausone, I''m afraid the cheapest one is 10000 or 20000. "What''s the matter? Uncomfortable?" Gu Beichen asked deliberately. Comfort is the ghost In Jian Mo''s heart, Gu Beichen''s stomach was feigned all over, but he smiled and said, "that... Husband, what do you think of our company?" "Not in the eye." Gu Beichen told the truth that he was dissatisfied with Jian Mo''s calling his husband every time he flattered him. Jane Mo grinned and continued, "well... What does my husband think is the average salary of an unattractive company?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and continued to answer, "but ten thousand!" "Right!" Jane Mo said hurriedly, "this Charter has asked me for a year''s salary... Husband, do you think you''re cheating on your wife?" "I don''t think so." Gu Beichen spoke indifferently. "..." Jian Mo''s mouth twitched even more. She knew that Gu Beichen was intentional. She turned her face and said stuffy, "then you can go by yourself later. I''ll stay to pay off the debt!" "Well, that''s a good suggestion." Gu Beichen nodded calmly, "you can come back to the restaurant owner." Originally, Jane Mo wanted to use this to hold Gu Beichen, but who knew that his calm reply made her angry. She stared at the smiling man opposite, pursed her lips, endured it or couldn''t resist, got up and wanted to go But the talent lifted his steps and was pulled by Gu Beichen. Along the way, her people have been pulled to sit next to Gu Beichen "The deep voice of Jane''s eyes slowly overflowed," and the deep foam of Jane''s eyes filled with happiness...... " Chapter 110 Jane Mo just wanted to break away from the momentum of getting up and suddenly stopped. Apricot eyes looked at Gu Beichen with surprise. For a time, she forgot her reaction. The nose was a little sour, but the corners of Jian Mo''s mouth smiled. With a thin layer of water mist in her eyes, she hugged Gu Beichen, "ah Chen..." she shouted softly, and there was no sound anymore. The year before last, she met Gu Beichen when she was most helpless... He said he lacked a obedient wife, and she said she was greedy for vanity and only wanted money. After meeting that day, the two of them went to get their marriage license. Today is not the wedding anniversary, but the anniversary of their two years of acquaintance On this day last year, he came back from abroad to accompany her. He just said that today is a special day for each other and should come back to accompany his wife. She thought it was the wedding anniversary, but it wasn''t the day to get the license or hold the wedding in Gu''s old house... He said it was the first anniversary of their meeting. Whether such a day is meaningful for Gu Beichen, she doesn''t know, but for her... Because this turning point has changed the trajectory of her life. She asked Gu Beichen on this day last year: will you accompany me every year during the marriage? He replied: OK! One word, she didn''t care... Because when she asked, she was just hypocritical and didn''t take it seriously at all. Unexpectedly... Today she still doesn''t remember, but he still remembers his promise to her. Something exploded in Jane Mo''s heart. She knew she couldn''t continue to let her heart fall... But she couldn''t control it. "Ah Chen, I know you..." Jane Mo''s mouth turns sour and sour, "... It''s nice!" No matter what they will do in the future, he... Is a beautiful scenery that cannot be replaced in her life. Because of him, after the collapse of Jane''s house, she didn''t live too badly. Because of his love for Chu Zixiao, she didn''t suffer as much as she thought. Also because of him... She understood that love would be humble. Gu Beichen''s thin lips slightly raised an arc like nothing, and that smile was a touch of comfort from the heart, "do you know me now?" He raised his eyebrows. "But it''s no use flattering. You''ll pay for it tonight." "..." Jian Mo immediately got up. Because she was just moved, her eyes were slightly red and stared at Gu Beichen, "don''t you think your words are very destructive to the atmosphere?" "A little," Gu Beichen admitted, "but I just want to remind you not to be dazzled by happiness. When you are happy, you will be sad." "..." Jian Mo felt that she couldn''t play well, so she pushed Gu Beichen away, got up, went back to the opposite side and sat down. After a while, the waiter brought the awakened red wine and the first dish. One after another, each dish was extremely exquisite. "Today is our first time to eat out..." Jane Mo decided to wait. She thought that she had no money anyway. Gu Beichen had the ability to really put her here. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered softly. His slender fingers grabbed the red wine glass and shook it gently. He looked at Jian Mo''s face and was satisfied. In fact, she is the most hypocritical woman around him... She never has a moment of sincerity in front of him. But she is also the least greedy and most easily satisfied one around him... Even if she often shows greed and vanity. "What about today''s second anniversary? Are there no gifts?" Jane Mo asked suddenly. "Doesn''t it count to have dinner with you?" Gu Beichen is light. Jane Mo glanced, "count..." and then a flattering smile, "if you pay, even if you pay!" She thought, if Gu Beichen has a gift, she will pay off the debt with the gift later... Look where Gu Beichen''s face goes. If not, she''ll depend on him to pay for the meal. Jane Morse was a little careful. Gu Beichen saw through it at a glance and didn''t poke it. He just picked his eyebrow and said, "it''s still early after dinner. If you can go out of the restaurant with me, you can choose any gifts." "..." Jane Mo was depressed again. She stared angrily at Gu Beichen and said gnashing her teeth, "I''ll give me to the restaurant owner later..." she felt that this was not enough to relieve her anger and continued, "it''s a gift for your second anniversary of acquaintance." Then, with a knife and fork, Jian Mo began to fight with the food on the plate... That pair took the food as Gu Beichen. But no matter how the money turns out, Jian Mo is actually very happy at night Gu Beichen remembered that they had known each other for two years today. Even if it had nothing to do with love, she greedily attributed it to that he actually used his mind to her. Jane Mo drank some red wine. Under the soft light, her white cheek skin was stained with a thin layer of crimson... That kind of red is like delicate fruits waiting to be picked. Gu Beichen looked at the little woman who had known for two years with a light and deep eyes. The corners of his mouth didn''t know it and put on a comfortable smile After dinner, even if the meal is so happy and exciting, you still have to pay the bill. "Husband..." Jian Mo''s voice is soft and waxy. "Otherwise, you pay for it first, and then you deduct it by installments from my living expenses, okay?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, and a faint smile of evil cunning was on the corner of his mouth. At the right moment, the restaurant manager came over and bowed down respectfully before handing a folder in his hand to Gu Beichen. "Chen Shao, the statements of this quarter have been sorted out, and the turnover of the restaurant has increased by 5% in the same period." Jane Mo''s mouth opened slightly. After looking at the manager in surprise, she looked at Gu Beichen again. Gu Beichen took the report and signaled that the manager could go. Then he looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes and said, "remember, what you just said..." when the words fell, he had stood up and said, "go." What did she just say? Give yourself to the restaurant owner? That is... According to the current situation, Gu Beichen is actually the owner of the restaurant. And she just foolishly walked into his preset trap... And then offset herself to him, the "restaurant owner"! Jane Mo''s face was dark. She grabbed her bag and got up. She went out with Gu Beichen in anger. Until she got on the bus, she stared at Gu Beichen with hatred, and then asked with a fake smile, "are you the restaurant owner?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrow and nodded. "Let your wife give it to yourself..." Jane Mo PI smiled, but she didn''t laugh. "Chen Shao, you''re so romantic!" She snorted coldly and looked out of the window. Suddenly, something was handed over, and Jane Mo looked down with instinctive reaction... A jewelry box with magic jewelry logo was put in front of her. Jian Mo looked at it with a little out of state, and saw Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently and slowly said, "it''s not that you gave me a gift for dinner, shouldn''t I give you a gift for the second anniversary?" He raised his hand slightly. Jane Mo smiled unconsciously at the corners of her mouth, and that smile spread from the corners of her mouth to the bottom of her eyes She took the jewelry box and opened it. With a little light reflected from the outside, Jane Mo looked at the set of jewelry in amazement. It was the finished product of the "falling in love" jewelry design she sold to Gu Beichen for her mother''s medicine money. "This..." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and asked for the answer, "... Shouldn''t you give it to that woman?" Gu Beichen gave her the answer, but he pushed the back of her head to himself, and a deep and lingering kiss fell on her lips Chapter 111 Until Jian Mo''s breath was too heavy to breathe, as if to suffocate, Gu Beichen slowly let go of her. Eagle eyes looked at Jian Mo, who was panting because of her breathing, "how can the jewelry designed by my wife for the first time be on other women?" Light Yi''s voice was full of magnetism. As Gu Beichen spoke, the hot air spread on Jian Mo''s cheek, stirring her heartstrings Jane Mo kept reminding herself that she couldn''t let her heart in Gu Beichen''s world... But how could she control her fallen heart with such a man? "Do you know I designed it for the first time?" Jane Mo muttered, and her heart beat wildly because of Gu Beichen''s thoughts. Gu Beichen sighed, slowly lifted up and looked at Jian Mo, and asked with deep eyes: "if it''s not the first time, the jewelry shouldn''t be called ''falling in love''..." "Huh?" Jane was puzzled. Gu Beichen smiled, "only female designers in other fields who still have a princess in their heart will want to realize the princess dream in their heart when designing things that do not belong to their own field." "..." Jane Mo was speechless, and finally muttered, "I didn''t." Gu Beichen gazed deeply into his eyes. After a wanton arc was made on his thin lips, he started the car and drove straight to lanze garden Jane Mo smiled with her mouth closed all the way. She looked at her work as a finished product, and her eyes bent with laughter. Gu Beichen looked at her sideways. The smile on her face was so sweet and heartfelt... This is the smile Jane Mo has never shown in front of him in the past two years. Thin lips also raised. Gu Beichen looked at the car in front of him again, but the warmth he had never felt in his heart made him feel what a wise decision it was to send the design drawings to magic to be finished products from that day. The car is parked in the parking space in front of the villa. Jian Mo subconsciously looks outside and closes the jewelry box to get off At the right time, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone was buzzing with vibration. While opening the door, Gu Beichen picked it up. While listening to the other party''s words, Gu Beichen suddenly turned handsome and indifferent. When a pair of eagle eyes narrowed slightly, they emitted two cold lights. "Video conference in ten minutes." Gu Beichen hung up after the cold explanation. Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen in a daze. She had never seen Gu Beichen at work so cold and bloodthirsty. For a time, she forgot her reaction. Gu Beichen turned around and hugged Jian Mo into his arms. His voice said with a trace of helplessness: "it seems... What you want to give me will be moved later." Jian Mo''s face turned red. "That... Work is important..." there was a dull feeling in her voice. Gu Beichen let go of Jian Mo, and Mo Tong looked at her deeply, "why, lost?" He quipped. "I didn''t..." Jane Mo quickly denied, "I mean, my work is important. Didn''t you see that I brought my work back today?" Said, in order to prove, also want to raise the computer bag. However, when she raised her hand to the jewelry box, Jane Mo suddenly realized... She just patronized and was happy. She didn''t bring her computer bag down when she got off the bus. Gu Beichen smiled, "well, don''t show off my kindness to you... Just remember to show back and repay me." "..." Jane Mo suddenly recognized the sentence "the IQ of women in love is negative". Don''t you just say that she is now? Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, who was angry because of depression. His eyes lit up deeply, leaned over and kissed her on the corner of her lips, and said in a low voice, "Jian Mo, will you remember the next anniversary?" Jane Mo''s heart suddenly moved and asked without thinking, "is there another one?" The woman who makes you excited appears. Gu Beichen, we may not have another one. Gu Beichen slowly got up and looked at Jian Mo with a slightly drooping line of sight. Gradually, the ink pupil became deep and bottomless, "why not?" Jane Mo raised her eyes and had gathered away the loss at the bottom of her eyes. Instead, she always appeared in front of Gu Beichen. "If you dump the divorce agreement for me, won''t there be another one?" "Jian Mo, it seems... Today is the anniversary of our meeting, not the wedding anniversary..." Gu Beichen''s voice was a little cold. Then he looked at Jian Mo''s stunned look, hissed coldly, and turned upstairs to the study. Jian Mo was stunned and thought for a long time before he understood the meaning of Gu Beichen''s words... He wanted to say that even if they divorced, they would celebrate this anniversary? The sound of "bang" came. Jane Mo looked at the study and felt that she was the one who couldn''t play well With a self mocking smile, she looked at the jewelry box in her hand. Jane Mo went outside to take the computer bag back from the car first, and then went to the bedroom to put down the jewelry box. Jane has a large drawer full of jewelry bought by Gu Beichen and Susan, each of which is very expensive... In fact, she can sell jewelry in case of occasional lack of money. But it happened that she couldn''t sell these... In the end, it''s not her stuff. Put the "falling in love" into the drawer, and Jane Mo picked it up and opened it for a while... Different from other jewelry, this is full of magic to her just like the meaning of magic. Such magic... Comes from not only the finished products under her first jewelry design, but also her heart for Gu Beichen. After taking a bath, Jian Mo went to prepare to finalize the design of the law firm. There is also a study on the second floor, but Jane Mo doesn''t like it there. When she brings back work, most of them are made on the dining table. Obviously, the final design was finalized only a little, but as in the company, no matter how Jane Mo changed, she was not very satisfied. She always felt that part was too stiff and indifferent. Jane Mo lay on the table and let her long hair spread on her arms The sight fell on the closed door of the study. For the first time, Gu Beichen came back. She didn''t need to try to hook him, but she was worried about him here... Miss him! Jane Mo smiled with self mockery and lowered her eyes... She was a little confused in her mind. With a slight sigh, Jian Mo got up and looked at the computer screen, trying to pull her thoughts back to the design drawing... After looking at the circle of 3D renderings, she temporarily pushed her notebook aside, took the drawing paper and pen, and planned to draw the prototype of that position first. Time fell into work upstairs and downstairs and became a little dignified. It was more than two o''clock in the morning after Gu Beichen had a video conference. As soon as he left the study, Gu Beichen''s sight fell on Jian Mo, who was lying prone on the dining table and holding a drawing pen in his hand. He didn''t know whether he was meditating or sleeping With a slight frown, Gu Beichen went downstairs. Standing in front of Jane Mo, she quietly looked at her calm sleeping face. Her eyes were deep and fell on the messy drawing paper painted because of anxiety. "So uncertain, still expect to win the emperor''s project?" Gu Beichen hissed coldly. He sighed helplessly in his tone. His eyes were slightly deep, bent over and gently held Jian Mo up "PATA", the drawing pen in Jian Mo''s hand fell to the ground, and her eyes opened falsely. The waxy voice overflowed the pink lips, "ah Chen... If... I like you, what should I do?" Chapter 112 Gu Beichen''s original movement of turning and lifting steps suddenly stopped. He lowered his eyes and looked sharply at Jian Mo, but saw that she had closed her eyes, sought a comfortable position in his arms and slept in the past Gu Beichen seemed to have something spreading in his heart. The feeling was that when he was a teenager, his blood was full of palpitations? Slightly frown, Gu Beichen is a little repellent to his feelings. "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo shouted again. When Gu Beichen''s eyes became deeper and deeper, she sought the most comfortable position in his arms and fell asleep. Looking at Jian Mo''s vaguely dependent appearance, Gu Beichen sighed and took her upstairs... After gently putting her on the bed, looking at her soft and deep sleep, one side of her thin lip involuntarily raised a comfortable smile. Bending over, Gu Beichen gently kissed Jian Mo at the corner of her eyes. She felt her eyelashes tremble slightly because she was uncomfortable, and couldn''t help but arouse a faint smile of evil flattery on her thin lips. Gu Beichen got up and went to the bathroom to take a bath. When he came out, he saw that Jian Mo slept well, so he went to the study to deal with some remaining things... It was already past 3 a.m. when he was completely busy. Gu Beichen rubbed his swollen eyebrows. When he got out of the study, he went downstairs to pour himself a glass of water... But when he went downstairs, he saw the design drawings and open notebooks on the dining table. Subconsciously, Gu Beichen glanced at the 3D rendering on the computer screen, and then the eagle''s eyes fell slightly on the messy prototype drawing paper painted by Jian mo... Looking at the messy appearance, he couldn''t help frowning. Picked up the drawing paper, roughly scanned it, looked back at the direction of the upstairs bedroom... Finally, Gu Beichen bent down with a slight sigh and picked up the drawing pen that fell on the ground. The night was quiet, as if everything had become dead. Under the soft meal lamp, Gu Beichen''s slender and powerful fingers hold a drawing pen and quickly draw lines on the unfinished design prototype of Jian mo The second hand turned round and round. Gu Beichen looked at the bottleneck of Jian Mo, and then looked at the design prototype he drew on the drawing paper. Then he put down the paper and pen and got up to pour water for himself. The next day, the morning came in the drizzle When it rains in Los Angeles in autumn, the temperature will drop once. Jian Mo subconsciously arched in Gu Beichen''s arms. Without opening his eyes, he said in a muffled voice: "ah Chen, morning..." "Good morning..." Gu Beichen slightly screwed down the center of his eyebrows and whispered back. He also hugged Jian Mo''s soft body in his arms. Jian Mo''s arm pricked around Gu Beichen''s strong chest and said, "I don''t want to get up..." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, then turned over and completely pressed Jian Mo''s thin body into his confinement. Jane Mo slowly opened her eyes. The warmth of her body instantly sank her heart... After that, such a hug doesn''t belong to her. A touch of astringent ran across the corner of the mouth. The long eyelash feather swept around Gu Beichen''s chest because of the fan, as if the feather kept teasing Gu Beichen''s heart. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo looked up slightly. "Did you hold me up last night?" It''s hard for you to look down at yourself without opening your eyes "..." Jane Mo smiled sweetly. "Someone confessed to me last night..." Gu Beichen slowly opened his mouth and glanced at Jane Mo''s surprise. "Why, don''t you remember?" "How possible?" Jane Mo was stunned. She really didn''t have any impression, but her subconscious face was a little hot, as if she was guilty of being a thief. Gu Beichen sneered coldly, "I knew you would deliberately break pieces..." he said and let go of Jian Mo, ready to get up. Because Gu Beichen suddenly left, the chilly breath suddenly rushed into the quilt, and Jian Mo subconsciously shivered, "I''ll tell you the truth... What''s intentional?" She muttered discontentedly, but her eyes looked at Gu Beichen with a little urgency. Gu Beichen turned around and just looked at Jian Mo''s eyes, "I want to ask if you really confess... How do I answer?" Jane Mo opened her mouth slightly, slipped through the depths of her eyes, and hurriedly retorted, "you think too much... You daydream this morning. This is a disease... You have to be cured!" Gu Beichen smiled and turned to wash, leaving Jian Mo sitting on the bed with an unspeakable feeling. Some lost, and some self mockery After washing, Jane Mo went downstairs and said, "I hate rainy days most..." "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen took a sip of coffee. "God is crying. It''s strange to feel better!" Gu Beichen raised his eyes and glanced at Jian Mo, "naive!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and began to clean up the design drawings still scattered on the table. She was even more unhappy about the design that she didn''t draw last night. Suddenly Jane Mo''s action of cleaning up suddenly stopped. She hurriedly put down her others, took a drawing with an embryonic map and looked at it... Looked up and down for a long time, but she didn''t understand it. "Why are you scared by your ugly design?" Gu Beichen asked with an eyebrow. Jane Mo ignored Gu Beichen and just frowned at the place where the prototype map was drawn and muttered to herself: "I don''t remember that I finally finished..." However, if it is not completed, this picture can not be painted by ghosts, can it? "Ah Chen..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen made a faint noise. "This picture..." Jane Mo was a little tangled. "Did I draw it when you took me to bed yesterday?" Gu Beichen glanced at the design drawing and said indifferently, "compared with holding you to sleep... Do you think your design drawing will attract me more?" The light sneer made Jane Mo grin, "what''s the big deal..." after she muttered, she happily cleaned up the design drawings, thinking that as soon as she went to the company to show the 3D renderings, she could safely cope with the comparison of the imperial club next Monday. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s smile deeply, and some greedy were reluctant to move away From yesterday when she received the "falling in love" to now, she unexpectedly thought that she was happy with the completion of her design drawing, which made him suddenly want to cherish it all the time "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo said while drinking milk. "Wait, you take me to the subway station." Gu Beichen picked her up yesterday. Her car was still in the company. "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered. Jane Mo was very happy. Early in the morning, because of the haze in cloudy and rainy weather, her mood seemed to be sunny all of a sudden At the right time, the "buzzing" vibration of the mobile phone came. Gu Beichen calmly put down the newspaper, took the mobile phone, glanced at the phone, and picked it up without half an expression change on his cold face He didn''t speak. After listening to the other party, he said, "I''ll go right away..." when he said that, the other person had got up and walked out, "I said, I''ll go right away, Shen Chu, you''ll wait there!" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s figure and went out of the villa door with his voice of forbearance and anger. Then... There was the roar of the engine until he left after drawing a cold arc in the drizzle Chapter 113 Something spread from the corner of her mouth, and the bitter sting hurt Jian Mo''s heart... She laughed at herself, lowered her eyes and silently finished her breakfast. However, the delicious breakfast is like chewing wax. Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo, who was in a panic. She was a little angry, but she was in a bad mood because of her own business. Finally, she could only turn into a sigh. After sending Jian Mo to the company, Li Xiaoyue asked, "girl, you chose the hardest way for yourself... Do you know?" Jane Mo glanced at Li Xiaoyue, and apricot eyes lost their pride in the past. Li Xiaoyue hugged Jian Mo and her nose was a little sour. "No matter what decision you make, you should remember... I''m by your side." "Well..." Jane Mo closed her eyes, took a deep breath in her throat and got up, "I''m going up." Li Xiaoyue nodded and watched Jian Mo get out of the car and enter the office building before starting the car to leave... But at that moment, her heart became heavy. It''s almost impossible for a woman to be indifferent to a man like Gu Beichen... But falling in love with him is doomed to a sadness. How should Jane Mo bear it? The drizzly morning shrouded the whole city of Los Angeles with a layer of Psychedelic fog, just like a tearful heart, with a thin sadness The screeching sound of brakes was particularly harsh and abrupt outside the northern suburbs of Los Angeles. Gu Beichen first glanced at the white figure on the edge of the earth slope, then untied the safety belt, got out of the car and walked over, "Shen Chu, didn''t I tell you to stay where you are?" The wind blew and raised Shen Chu''s long hair, which was slightly wet. She tilted her head, and her eyelashes were also stained with raindrops. With her slightly trembling eyelids, the water beads turned into a fog in front of her eyes. The hot water mixed with rain meandered down her cheeks and finally spread around her mouth... The salty taste was like gouging out her nerves under the blade, so painful that she couldn''t breathe. Gu Beichen came forward and took her into his arms, "I''m sorry... I don''t want to hurt you..." Shen Chu closed his eyes, and the hot in his eyes suddenly squeezed out, "Beichen..." she hugged his waist, "I don''t want to, I don''t want to..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and felt Shen Chu holding his clothes as if he were drowning. "But one night, I can''t sleep all night..." Shen Chu trembled slightly because of forbearance. "But when I saw you kissing her in the car from a distance... I, I don''t know what to do..." Gu Beichen still held Shen Chu''s trembling body tightly and couldn''t say anything. "I followed you all the time and finally came to lanzeyuan..." Shen Chu said here, laughing and crying even more. She pushed Gu Beichen away. The bottom of her red eyes was disappointed. "That place... You gave it to me. You were going to give it to me!" She accused, but her voice was obviously repressed, "Beichen, you are retaliating against me, aren''t you?" Gu Beichen''s dark pupil looked at Shen Chu with disappointment on his face and didn''t answer. At the beginning, Jian Mo was arranged in lanzeyuan. She had more or less plans to give up something... The woman said she would leave, and even left without contacting him. He was angry... However, the reason why Jian Mo really lived in lanze garden was that Jian Mo had a pair of eyes that were as flexible as Shen Chu, but showed forbearance and indifference. He is not a person who likes to seek comfort from others, but when he knows that Jane Mo needs money, when he needs a wife, he first thinks of her "Xiao Chuer..." "Don''t call me!" Shen Chu shook his head in disappointment and stepped back step by step, "Beichen, I hate you!" After she yelled, she turned and ran away. Gu Beichen didn''t move, but looked at Shen Chu''s angry back... Gradually, Mo Tong turned into complex sadness. He just hides some of his sadness. "Ah --" "Xiaochu''er..." Gu Beichen''s pupils dilated at the moment Shen Chu tripped, hurried forward and helped her up, anxiously checking whether she had hit anything. When seeing the faint red blood on Shen Chu''s knee, he quickly picked her up and walked to the car Shen Chu pursed his lips and endured the tingling pain on his knee. A pair of red eyes stared at Gu Beichen''s firm chin. The sadness in his heart gradually spread to his whole body, and he didn''t want to see him. Gu Beichen put Shen Chu on the co pilot, then turned to the driver''s seat, started the car and drove to the nearest hospital The silence in the car seemed to explode people''s heart. Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly cold, and Shen Chu looked out of the car. No one spoke. Until the doctor treated Shen Chu''s wound, Gu Beichen just gritted his teeth and said, "you don''t like her living. I''ll arrange another residence for her later." "Already live, don''t you?" Shen Chu just felt funny. His nose was very sour. "Who is she?" The words fell, and she looked at Gu Beichen with red eyes, "who is the woman in lanze garden?" Last night, due to being in the car and the location problem, Shen Chu could only roughly see an outline, but didn''t see who the woman was "Another one on the marriage certificate." Gu Beichen spoke calmly. Shen Chu was slightly stunned, and then smiled with self mockery, "I am now an outsider questioning the original match... Hehe, hehe... Gu Beichen, how can you make me fall into such a humble place?" She tried to endure the spread of sadness, and stood up with her teeth clenched. Gu Beichen wanted to help him, but she threw him away "You put your wife in lanzeyuan. This is the best answer you gave me... Beichen, I shouldn''t come back because I miss you!" Shen Chu laughed at himself and walked out one by one, regardless of the tingling in his knee Long hair stained with rain, some stick to the cheek, looking a little embarrassed at the beginning of Shen. But she didn''t care. She just walked out step by step. Gu Beichen strode forward and grabbed Shen Chu. "You can leave without reason. I can''t leave a woman in lanze garden... Shen Chu, don''t you think you''re too selfish?" Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen and twisted his arm with red eyes, trying to get rid of Gu Beichen. "Yes, I''m selfish... So I decided not to be selfish... Gu Beichen, I''ll leave today and never go back to Los Angeles again. Are you satisfied?" Gu Beichen listened and narrowed his eyes slightly, "I said, if you don''t want to, I''ll put her somewhere else... Shen Chu, what can I do to satisfy you, you say?" "You think I''m making trouble now, don''t you?" Shen Chu saw Gu Beichen and didn''t answer. She laughed at herself. Tears fell uncontrollably in an instant. Her voice choked with forbearance and said, "Gu Beichen, you can trample on me, but you can''t trample on my love for you..." Chapter 114 After Jian Mo returned to the company, she made a 3D rendering according to the prototype drawing... Finally, looking at the bottleneck, she always felt that something was wrong, but she didn''t know what was wrong. "Sister Mo," hopped over to the evening, with a little ambiguity in her tone, and took out an invitation, "sister Mo, we have spoken to the piano prince. The designer must be present at the commencement ceremony!" When Jane Mo heard this, she gouged out her eyes and accepted the invitation late. It was Sunday. "Sister Mo, I don''t know why... Why do I think you and the piano prince have so little... Xiaojiqing?" He leaned forward to the evening and said with a grin. Jian Mo raised her eyebrows. "It''s more than a little. It''s already in deep water..." she said jokingly, then took a laptop and got up, "I''ll go to Chu Tang law firm to finalize the design." "Oh... Sister Mo, go yourself?" Xiang night asked with some worry for fear that the previous thing would happen again. Jane Mo turned back and stared at the night with a helpless sign, then turned and left. If she can''t break the knot with Chu Zixiao, she will face it anyway After driving to the Chu Tang law office, the construction personnel have entered the site and started the preliminary work. As soon as her design drawings arrive, she began to catch up with the progress. "If Chu Bian doesn''t need to modify this design drawing, I''ll directly distribute it to the construction personnel later." Jane has a business face. Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo with light and deep eyes, but her thoughts deviated, and she didn''t pay attention to what she said. Tang Yu on one side accepted him, and then made a sign in his eyes. Chu Zixiao responded and said, "I''m very satisfied with this design." After a slight meal, he continued, "do you mind having a cup of coffee later?" Jane thought for a moment and didn''t refuse. "I''ll be busy first," Tang Yu didn''t want to get involved in the affairs of the two people. "That... Jian Mo, have a meal when you''re free later?" Jane nodded. "OK." Tang Yu is busy. Chu Zixiao and Jian Mo sit down in a small cafe near the temporary law firm Because it is located in the CBD business circle, the coffee shop is decorated with petty bourgeoisie atmosphere. People sit inside and naturally relax. "Did you finish all the design drawings by yourself?" Chu Zixiao suddenly asked. Jian Mo nodded, "HMM..." Xu said her feelings that day in Luoda and Chu Zixiao. Now she is much more relaxed. "Xiangyu is still a company with a lot of independent space. Generally speaking, unless it is a big project, it is completed by individuals." Chu Zixiao lowered his eyes and smiled. Then he looked at Jian Mo with some deep eyes, "I''m surprised by one of your design drawings this time..." "Where?" Jane Mo asked subconsciously. "The little bookcase made of abstract Libra in the corner of my office window..." Chu Zixiao''s voice was a little complicated. "That style really reminds me of a person." "Oh?" Jane Mo wondered, "who?" That place was the one she had been dissatisfied with last night. Later, I didn''t know if it was due to the confused inspiration before going to bed. She even painted Libra a little abstract... But obviously, that feeling was what she wanted. "Beichen..." Jane Mo''s eyes widened in surprise, "he?" She slapped her eyelashes. "Can he draw designs, too?" Looking at Jian Mo''s surprised expression, Chu Zixiao knew... He thought more. If that place was completed by Beichen, she shouldn''t have such an expression. "He was once a top student in the Department of architecture of UCL..." Chu Zixiao said without surprise. "However, the Department of architecture was the credit of his minor, but he got the degree certificate with the credit of surpassing everyone in the Department." "..." Jane Mo was surprised, and something was blocking her in her heart, as if she were about to explode. "The villa you live in now is also designed by himself..." Chu Zixiao''s eyes were slightly deep and knew that he was a little mean, but he still said, "that''s his only internal design of the house." Jian Mo looked at Chu Zixiao, listened to what he said and looked at his slightly deep eyes at the moment. Instinctively, she thought that the lanze garden was originally designed for the woman Gu Beichen used to care about The corners of her mouth pursed subconsciously. Jian Mo tried to suppress the sour in her heart. She pulled at the corners of her mouth and deliberately pretended not to understand: "ha ha, really..." At the right time, Jane Mo''s cell phone rang, and she secretly thanked the caller. Sorry, after looking at Chu Zixiao, she took out her mobile phone. Seeing that it was Sun Ke, she picked it up and put it in her ear. "Mo Mo, have you finished your work over there?" "Well, it''s over..." Jane Mo asked, "what''s the matter?" "Mr. Yu asked you to come back to him after your work," Su Ke paused and lowered his voice. "It seems to be about the design of the emperor''s club." Jane Mo listened and answered, "OK, I''ll go back right away..." she hung up and looked at Chu Zixiao more and more sorry. Chu Zixiao lightly hooked his lips. "You''re busy first. When ah Yu''s time is set, I''ll call you..." he paused slightly. He then said, "Mo Mo, anyway... I hope you don''t refuse me to appear next to you." Jane Mo secretly bit her teeth and said with a smile, "there''s no way to refuse my relationship with ah Chen, isn''t it?" She saw the sadness from the crack of his eyes, but she could only bite her teeth, hook the corners of her lips, and then leave. She has always been a cruel person. Since she can''t be together forever, don''t give Zixiao any hope After returning to the company, Jian Mo went to Yu Ziyun. After discussing the direction of the design of the compared draft, they found that they didn''t feel very bright anyway... It''s obviously difficult to win from two companies with many famous designers. "Mr. Yu, since you don''t think you have a chance to win, let me play freely..." Jian Mo said calmly. Yu Ziyun nodded with a deep sigh. "That''s the only way... Fortunately, we can at least participate in the comparison of manuscripts. It''s better than Zhongpeng." "..." Jian Mo was speechless and didn''t understand why he was a calm man with feelings. When he met Luo Xiaojing, he became childish. "Mr. Yu, I''ll be busy first." Yu Ziyun nodded. After Jian Mo left the office, she went to the engineering design department. There were less than five days left. Anyway, she had to fight. But I just sat down, but my sight inadvertently fell on the design waste map of Chu Tang Law Institute Jian Mo subconsciously looked for the paper with the Libra sketch, and finally fell on the drawing. Her sight gradually became lax... She had no impression whether she had finished the drawing last night. But if Gu Beichen finished it, why didn''t he say anything in the morning? Thinking of the morning, Jane Mo''s heart suddenly hurt In the past two years, even in the morning, Gu Beichen would at least arrange for her when he was busy... But today, he completely forgot. Shen Chu Jian Mo frowned with self mockery. When she lowered her eyes, she covered the darkness at the bottom of her eyes... Gu Beichen, thank you, thank you for allowing me to return my budding heart to its original shape! Chapter 115 Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen holding a cotton swab and dipping disinfectant to her to reprocess the cracked wound. His eyes were slightly red and turned his face aside, "I''m fine. You can go and help yourself." Gu Beichen was unmoved, but said indifferently: "Shen Chu, we are not children..." Shen Chu glanced at Gu Beichen with a smile of self mockery. "Do you think I''m a child in a temper at the moment... Right?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but took a cotton swab and dipped disinfectant to wipe another place for Shen Chu "Pa" came, and Gu Beichen''s cotton swab was knocked off. "You go..." Shen Chu said with a sour nose, "I don''t need your pity." Gu Beichen raised his eyes. The eagle''s eyes were as deep as the ancient pond, which made people can''t see to the end. Such Gu Beichen is strange to Shen Chu, but also a little afraid... In the past, he was calm, but he was wanton and arrogant under his passion for life. Now he is filled with calm indifference. Gu Beichen took a cotton swab again, dipped it in disinfectant, wiped another wound for Shen Chu, and then bandaged it... He didn''t say a word from beginning to end. Shen Chu tightly pursed her lips and watched him deal with everything. The depressed position of her heart made her emotionally confused. "Beichen, you..." she pursed her lower lip, "do you like the one on your marriage certificate?" Gu Beichen was slightly silent and just said, "no!" "You lie!" Shen Chu is a woman. She has a woman''s sensitivity to feelings... Gu Beichen''s slight hesitation just scared her. Gu Beichen got up, and the eagle''s eyes opened indifferently: "whatever you want." Shen Chu trembled his eyelashes, but he didn''t let the sadness in his eyes leak out again. She was so strong that Gu Beichen''s heart was suddenly flustered... Subconsciously, Jian Mo''s forbearance was crossed in his mind. "If you like her, please tell me..." Shen Chu looked up at Gu Beichen with water mist in his eyes. "I don''t want to be a third party in your emotional world." "You''re not..." Gu Beichen had an inexplicable emotion in his heart, which blocked him from breathing smoothly. "Shen Chu, you don''t like her living in lanze garden. I''ll empty it there." "What can I do if I''m free? It''s not what you designed for me..." Shen Chu yelled a little wayward. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "if you like, I can design it again for you. Shen Chu, you know, interior design, I only treat you!" Shen Chu was silent, but because of her forbearance, the corners of her lips trembled slightly and made a sound of accusation, "that''s the wedding room you prepared for us..." finally, she couldn''t help making a sound of sadness, and her tears "rustled" fell down. Gu Beichen closed his eyes and took Shen Chu into his arms. "As long as you like, I can design many houses for you, just for you!" The rain outside is getting a little heavy. It''s only a drizzle in the morning, with a trace of romantic sadness. By the time we get off work, it has become a wandering heavy rain, "clattering" beating everything. Jane Mo thought a little late about the design of the club. When she returned to lanze garden, it was almost nine o''clock in the evening There was a light on in the villa. She was a little surprised. When the car stopped in the parking space and saw Maybach on the side, the corners of her mouth subconsciously smiled... But in a flash, because of Chu Zixiao''s words, her smile froze in the corners of her mouth. Taking a deep breath, Jian Mo looked at the blurred light caused by the rain and said, "the predicted ending is coming now. Isn''t it too hypocritical to be melancholy?" Jane Mo smiled, although the smile was a little bitter. She turned around, got out of the car with her umbrella and ran quickly to the villa... When she opened the door and went in, she saw Gu Beichen leaning on the small bar with a glass of red wine in her hand, and the evil spirit looked at her wantonly. "Ah Chen, why are you back?" The voice of Beichen, as always, turned up and said to her, "change her shoes!" Gu Beichen looked at the heartless woman and said with black eyes like Obsidian: "let''s see if someone who was discarded in the morning is angry." Jane Mo slipped a strange emotion at the bottom of her eyes, but it just disappeared in a flash. She didn''t even notice it. "I forgot if you didn''t mention it..." she deliberately pretended to be angry, "it''s too much. Later, I almost came late again!" Gu Beichen looked more and more deeply at the woman in front of him. For two years, she has been like this in front of him. Today, she is not used to looking at this hypocritical face. Gu Beichen suddenly fished Jian Mo, turned around, and then leaned down... Thin lips instantly grabbed the delicate lips that were about to chatter, and rolled and sucked them hard. Jane Mo felt something wrong with Gu Beichen. If in the past, she would pretend she didn''t know and try to cooperate to please him. But now the mood is different. Even if she keeps telling herself, it seems that she can''t really be as heartless as before. Feeling Jian Mo''s inattention, Gu Beichen''s kiss became more and more domineering and violent The sound of "clang" came, and then the air was mixed with the mellow taste of red wine. Jane Mo doesn''t know what Gu Beichen is angry about. Shouldn''t she be angry? Well, she has no right to be angry, even if she should The passionate kisses showed each other''s complex emotions, as if no one could reason clearly, and no one wanted to reason clearly. Just when Jian Mo was breathing heavily and almost suffocating, Gu Beichen just let go of Jian mo. the eagle''s eyes were deep and bottomless, just like a whirlpool like a tornado, which was going to devour people at any time. "Living here, it''s inconvenient to go to work in case of emergencies..." Gu Beichen said, "change a house in the city?" Jane Mo listened, and there was a self mocking mood under her drooping eyes. But when she lifted her eyes, she had recovered her calm, "OK..." she flattered and hooked Gu Beichen''s neck, "but you should be careful when you go home in the future... I don''t want to be exposed." Gu Beichen''s eyes were deeper and deeper. Looking at Jian Mo, he asked with gnashing teeth: "from the villa to the apartment, you haven''t lost?" "Why not?" Jane Mo tried to suppress the mood at the bottom of her heart, and the corners of her mouth still smiled heartlessly, "but my husband thinks of me and can''t live up to his kindness, can''t he?" "Ah..." Gu Beichen sneered, "Jian Mo, for two years... You always put your position so right!" Then he opened Jian Mo''s arm, turned and went upstairs. Jane Mo slightly clenched her hand and asked, "you''re so angry. Do you want me not to put my position right?" She tried to pull and smile at the corners of her mouth, "if you want to see me greedy, in fact, I don''t mind acting like this..." Gu Beichen suddenly stopped and turned around The eagle''s eyes shot two rays of light and looked at Jian mo. finally, his thin lips slightly hooked a sneering radian. He saw his thin lips light up, and his voice said slowly with sneering: "Jian Mo, I hope you can always put your position right!" Chapter 116 "Nature!" Jian morwei pursed his lips and answered with a smile. The bright apricot eyes matched Gu Beichen''s deep eyes. Looking at him, it seemed as if he had slipped through the rough waves at the bottom of his eyes, coldly took back his sight and turned to the study Just as Gu Beichen entered the study and heard the sound of closing the door, all the disguises of Jian Mo collapsed in an instant. Looking down at the pool of scarlet liquor on the ground, Jane Mo''s self mockery gradually spread, but it reached the bottom of her eyes in an instant What can she do if she doesn''t position herself? Do you allow yourself to love and leave in embarrassment at last? She squatted down on the edge of the bar and felt as if her heart was weak and her hands were buried between her knees. Shen Chu appeared... So I can''t live here, can I? Chu Zixiao''s meaning is already obvious. Lanze garden is the only interior design Gu Beichen has ever designed. Does it mean that he actually designed it for Shen Chu... It''s just that her dove occupied the magpie''s nest! Hehe... How nice to move! It''s convenient to go to work in the future. You don''t have to be afraid of leaving when there are accidents due to living in such a rich area. Jane Mo bit her lower lip and raised her eyes. Her eyes were slightly red and slid through every corner of the house She studied architectural design. From the first day she lived here, she knew that the design here was not written by ordinary people. However, she didn''t expect that it was designed by Gu Beichen himself. Drooping her eyes, Jane Mo slowly got up, went to the kitchen, took a broom and dustpan, cleaned up the debris of the goblet, and then cleaned the ground. Only then did she drag her heavy body back to the bedroom. Lying in the Jacuzzi, Jane Mo looked at the ceiling with dull eyes... Gradually, her eyes became distracted due to empty thoughts. People, no desire is just! Now she becomes humble because of her desire and greed for Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen stood in front of the window of his study, with a cigarette burning in his hand. The curling smoke gradually diffused with confusion... Shrouded in his solitude. The rain outside became more and more unscrupulous, and the night lights outside were reflected into an abstract oil painting. He didn''t know what was wrong with him. He was angry when he saw Jane Morse''s heartless and indifferent appearance... This feeling made him subconsciously want to resist, but it seemed that he couldn''t resist. Gu Beichen anxiously twisted out the cigarette butts in the ashtray on one side of the small table, then took out his mobile phone and dialed Xiao Jing''s number "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing''s voice was drowned in the noise, so he hurriedly said, "shut up!" The phone was quiet "Is there any vacant apartment near Lingfeng International Center?" Gu Beichen asked indifferently. Xiao Jing was stunned at first and then said, "the nearest one is Runze garden... There should be several sets reserved for vacancy." "Prepare a set of furniture with the best environment and geographical location..." Gu Beichen explained, "tomorrow we will arrange all the furniture." Xiao Jing couldn''t help asking, "is it for Miss Jane?" Gu Beichen was silent at first, and then replied, "well." "OK, I see..." Xiao Jing answered. When he heard Gu Beichen hang up, he put down his cell phone. "Erjing, what''s the matter?" A woman ran to Xiao Jing, hooked his neck and asked, "who''s calling?" "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing shrugged. "OK, you play first. I''ll take the order to work first." "Must..." the woman rolled her eyes. "We have a few rare parties, so you just leave us?" Xiao Jing was helpless. "Elder sister... I can''t help following Chen Shao now. Who, like you, has nothing to do with the moth all day around the Dragon boss..." Xiao Jing''s words behind him were replaced by a painful howl. The woman who hooked him gave him a kick before. I don''t know when it arrived. A man behind him waved him a punch at the same time. Xiao Jing''s mouth was bruised by his teeth, and a trace of blood spilled from his mouth, "shit, it''s so cruel!" He looked at the two laughing people coldly, then looked at the other two who were still sitting on the sofa, but looked at him equally and said, "I''ll be busy first. I''ll write down this punch today." After the words fell, Xiao Jing''s eyes slipped dangerously over the man and woman who hit him, turned and left "The second is more and more calm." "You can''t follow the gloomy man of chenshao without calmness..." "Alas, brother Xiao has gone to chase the gentle village. It''s so boring!" Looking at the people, you said something to me. The man who has been sitting aside with the whisky with the ice hockey in his hand has a slightly deep look in his eyes. Coldly, he said, "brother Xiao, if you can''t warm up this time, I''m afraid some people will change the color of the wind and cloud." After hearing this, they suddenly lost the mood of joking. They looked at each other, shrugged and became angry After leaving the club, Xiao Jing drove to get the key, went to the Runze garden, and finally chose a top floor with excellent vision and scenery... Why choose the top floor? Xiao Jing looked up and pressed the remote control in his hand. He only heard the sound of machinery sliding... Then, the huge toughened glass was printed in the depths of his eyes The rain "crackled" on the tempered glass, because after special treatment, it will not leave too many traces. No matter what the weather is, the top floor is the most suitable for romance Xiao Jing suddenly grinned and muttered to himself, "tut Tut, with the feeling that heaven is the quilt, Chen Shao must feel more interesting..." Gu Beichen opened the door of the study and went to the bedroom. Without taking any light action, he suddenly pushed open the door of the bedroom At the right time, Jian Mo was about to pull the door from the inside. She was startled by the suddenly opened door, and her eyes were straight on Gu Beichen''s deep eyes. "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo shouted softly and looked at Gu Beichen''s stretched handsome face. After sipping the lower lip corner, he came forward and circled his arms. "I''m going to go to the study to see if you sleep or not?" Gu Beichen''s anger just suppressed because he saw Jian Mo''s attitude and suddenly "rubbed" up, "let Xiao Jing arrange a runzeyuan apartment..." he clearly didn''t want to say this, but the exit became this. "There''s no accident, you can move there the day after tomorrow." Jane Mo''s heart sank suddenly, and there was a touch of sadness at the bottom of her eyes, but it was fleeting, "moistening the garden?" She picked the corner of her eyebrows and raised her lips. "Isn''t it very close to where I work?" She hugged Gu Beichen''s neck in surprise, "husband, it''s very kind of you... You can go home after work and cook by yourself!" Looking at Jian Mo''s happy appearance, Gu Beichen''s face is full of haze, just like the dark air outside Chapter 117 "Jane Mo, is that what you wanted for a long time?" Gu Beichen''s voice suddenly became evil, and there was a hidden danger in it. Jane Mo fanned her eyelashes and nodded in a serious way, "except it''s inconvenient to sneak with you, everything is very convenient... Naturally, I don''t want to live here!" "Ho" spilled over his thin lips, Gu Beichen narrowed his eagle eyes slightly, opened Jian Mo, and then coldly went to the dressing room to change his clothes. Jane Mo thought Gu Beichen was going to change his bathrobe, but she was surprised to see him come out in neat clothes again. Gu Beichen didn''t even look at her. His indifferent one handed pocket went straight out of the bedroom Jane Mo didn''t react at first. When she turned around and came out of the bedroom, there was a "bang" sound of the villa door being thrown up. Something cracked at the bottom of her eyes. Jane Mo laughed at herself and subconsciously tightened her hand holding the handrail of the stairs. She didn''t wake up until there was a sound of "Yiyi" because of her strength. Turning around slowly, the glass lamp pulled Jian Mo''s figure long and looked very lonely... She stood at the door of the bedroom and looked at the big bed with Gu Beichen. She suddenly felt a little ironic. People really can''t form dependence and habits. Once they learn these two things... When they are going to be stripped one day, the original feeling of suffocation makes her want to cry. After Gu Beichen left that night, Jian Mo didn''t see him until he moved "Miss Jane, what do you think is inappropriate to tell me..." Xiao Jing subconsciously rubbed the tip of his nose, "well... I''m less busy with JK''s acquisition these two days, so..." Jane Mo didn''t speak, so she watched Xiao Jing make it up there. Seeing that he couldn''t make it up, she just laughed with a "puff" laugh, "how do you feel that I should be sad?" "No... absolutely not!" Xiao Jing quickly shook his head and denied. Jane Mo smiled and turned around. She took a remote control on the tea table and looked at it. When she was about to speak, her finger accidentally pressed a key... She heard the sound of "stabbing", but the curtain closed slowly. "It''s said that Runze garden is a high-tech apartment. It''s really..." Jane Mo looked surprised. "Seriously, for me, it''s really much better here than lanze garden." She looked at Xiao Jing. "First, it''s convenient, second, it''s fresh!" Xiao Jing looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, trying to see through her real mood, but obviously... He didn''t see anything from his smiling face. Jane Mo, like the one he has always known, is a gentleman''s greed and vanity! "If Miss Jane doesn''t need anything else, I''ll go first." Xiao Jing said, "just call me if you think it''s inappropriate." "Don''t you stay for dinner?" Jane Mo asked with a smile. Xiao Jing was stunned, and then hurriedly shook his head. It looked like what a terrible thing. Are you kidding... If Beichen knows he''s staying for dinner, he may not have all the year-end bonuses back. Jian Mo was just polite. Seeing that Xiao Jing didn''t stay, he sent him away When the door closed, all the smiles on Jane Mo''s face gradually faded away. She glanced around the huge apartment, and finally all her emotions turned into a self mockery at the corners of her mouth. When she got her cell phone, Jane Mo thought about sending a text message to Gu Beichen... But at last, looking at the words "I have moved to Runze garden", she suddenly felt very stupid. Even if lanze doesn''t know where Xiaojing needs to go before he moves back to the garden, where will he help Xiaojing? Jian Mo deleted the text message and sent a message to Li Xiaoyue: today, my sister moved and invited you to dinner! Li Xiaoyue''s text message returned quickly: what do you mean? house-moving? Move to what house? You were kicked out by Gu Beichen? Are you getting divorced? Looking at so many questions, Jane Mo replied bitterly: almost! The text message was sent, and then the phone rang. Jian Mo saw that it was Li Xiaoyue and turned her eyes to pick it up... Before she put it in her ear, the woman''s roaring voice came over sharply. Jane Mo took the mobile phone aside until the sound inside was a little lower and then put it in her ear, "do you want to eat with me?" "If you can eat, don''t talk." Li Xiaoyue said unhappily. As soon as Jane Mo listened, she said directly, "forget it..." and wanted to hang up. "Alas..." Li Xiaoyue''s voice hurried, "where?" ¡°M3£¡¡± Li Xiaoyue was stunned at first and then said, "girl, are you okay? Are you sure you want to go to m3 for dinner?" "I just want to have a drink..." Jane Mo has gone to the bedroom to turn over her clothes. "See you in an hour." She didn''t give Li Xiaoyue a chance to talk and hung up. Jane Mo didn''t drive because she went to the bar. M3 is a clear bar, without too noisy music, but not too dull... Suitable for affectation. "Come on," Li Xiaoyue seemed to have forgotten the previous miscarriage and the unhappiness of the slag man, and restored her former arrogant queen fan''er, "what''s the matter with moving?" After Jane Mo roughly said her speculation, she smiled with self mockery, "Xiao Yue..." she lowered her eyes and said in a sour voice, "I seem to really fall in love with Gu Beichen." "I know!" Li Xiaoyue was not surprised. She had seen it in the hospital that time. Jane Mo mocked herself and said, "when the person he loves appeared, I found that I fell in love with him..." she pursed her lips and turned aside, trying to bear the sadness overflowing from the bottom of her heart. Li Xiaoyue sighed, "girl, whether that man really has a lover or not, he won''t belong to you..." "I know, I''m just sad..." Li Xiaoyue hugged Jian Mo, "it''s OK to be sad, but after being sad today, you will learn to pretend again tomorrow... Even if you love him, at least don''t let yourself show it." When talking to a lawyer, you always have to face her calm judgment and conclusion. Jane Mo just wants Li Xiaoyue to wake herself up. It''s best to let her stop being so unrealistic, "can you comfort me first today?" She fanned her eyelashes. "It''s sad to think that she has become someone else''s double." "Sad, that''s because you put your position in a humble place!" Li Xiaoyue rolled her eyes. "If it sounds better, you two are contractual husband and wife. If it sounds worse, you are legal gun friends!" Jian Mo looked at Li Xiaoyue, "are you so comforting? Change!" "Now that you''ve moved out, it''s estimated that the divorce is not far away..." Li Xiaoyue did change one, "so, you should be glad you haven''t fallen into the trap!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and felt that it was really right to find a lawyer to comfort herself... But, however, her heart had sunk. Chapter 118 It was almost eleven o''clock in the evening when Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue left m3. They didn''t take a bus, so they walked along the eaves of the corridor... They didn''t stop until Los Angeles square. "Xiaoyue, I''m so sad... Burp..." Jane Mo almost leaned against Li Xiaoyue. She looked at the square relief under the drizzle, and her eyes gradually became red because of the urge of alcohol. Li Xiaoyue is still holding a wine bottle in her hand. While supporting Jian Mo, she sucks her nose and says, "sad wool... Men, let him die!" "Yes!" Jane Mo straightened up suddenly, then staggered out of the shed and walked to the relief, "let him die -" The rain gradually wet her. Despite the cold autumn rain, Jane Mo just raised her head and closed her eyes... Let the rain beat her face. It''s good to pretend to cry, even if it rains Gu Beichen, our ending has been doomed from the beginning... I can''t control my own heart and sink into your tenderness and love. Today, I face you... Tomorrow, I will seal my heart well, even if... Rot in the corner. Jane Mo opened her eyes and pulled off the rubber band tied to her hair... Suddenly, her soft long hair spread down. Despite the occasional passers-by''s eyes, it seemed as if she was alone in the world... Jane Mo opened her arms and bent into a national standard dance posture, mixed with the music from the square, and began to dance alone in the rain. Li Xiaoyue leaned against the railing, and the unwilling rain floated in, slightly stained with the tip of her shoes. She looked at Jane Mo dancing tango in the rain, her nose suddenly sour and her eyes turned red. Jane Mo has always been an independent person since she was young. She always knows what she wants and doesn''t want... Even if there was an accident in Jane''s family two years ago, she can support people in such a dilemma. Now she mourns her feelings that have ended before they have started. Why should God be so cruel to Jane Mo? After depriving her of the feelings between Chu Zixiao in such a cruel way, now she falls into such a gentle trap "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing drove by the square, took back his sight on Jane Mo, who danced alone under the relief, and looked back at the man in the back seat, "it seems to be Miss Jane?" Gu Beichen''s eyes suddenly looked slightly cold, raised his eyes from the computer, turned his head and opened the window to see... If he ignored that there was no man, Jian Mo could reach the standard of a dancer at the moment. She even knew the national standard... Such a discovery made Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes deeper and deeper. "Stop!" The voice of indifference overflowed thin lips. At the right time, Xiao Jing pulled over and stopped the car. Gu Beichen put down the notebook still on his lap and opened the door to get off. Xiao Jing hurriedly supported his umbrella They didn''t move. They just stood by the car and looked at Jane Mo rotating... Today she was wearing a light rose red thin wool skirt and a beige sweater. Now her hair was put down and turned into the most beautiful radian when rotating. Gu Beichen''s sight became deeper and deeper, and then he walked past with one hand taking a pocket Xiao Jing followed for two steps and suddenly stopped. He felt that it was too against him to hold an umbrella for Gu Beichen at this moment. Suddenly... Just as Gu Beichen was about to approach Jian Mo, Jian Mo''s foot suddenly slipped and the whole person fell back in an instant "Ah --" Jane Mo exclaimed, instinctively closed her eyes and waited for her to fall But without the expected pain, Jane Mo was caught by a strong arm bend. Jane Mo slowly opened her eyes with some surprise. She was also frightened to wake up for a few minutes. She fanned her eyes and looked at the man holding her. Under the intersection of drizzle and light, Gu Beichen''s handsome face reflected half of the light. In addition, he was backlit for Jian Mo at the moment. Jian Mo couldn''t see who it was. She... How did she feel that she saw Gu Beichen? Because of the fact that she had hallucinations after drinking wine, Jane Mo''s face was a little hot and dry. She was flustered and wanted to stand up, but who knew that her feet slipped again and she fell back again. Li Xiaoyue watched the scene helplessly. From the beginning, some reactions came to slightly frown, "why is Gu Beichen here?" "Stupid!" Gu Beichen''s indifferent voice spilled over his thin lips in time, and helped Jian Mo up with a trace of complex emotion. Jane Mo saw the man in front of her at this moment. Her pupils suddenly enlarged and exclaimed, "Gu Beichen?" Gu Beichen frowned at the moment when she was called by her name and surname, "what are you crazy about here?" With that, his eyes crossed Jian Mo and looked at Li Xiaoyue, who was still carrying a bottle of wine in his hand. Then he sneered, "man, you really can''t live too comfortably." Li Xiaoyue suddenly stopped because of Gu Beichen''s words. She looked at him through the drizzle and said, "Momo said she was happy to move today... So she came out for a drink." She deliberately chewed the word "happy". If Gu Beichen has such a little feeling for Jian Mo, then... He should respond to these two words more or less. "Happy?" Gu Beichen made a sound with a slight cold breath. Li Xiaoyue raised her eyebrows and nodded, ignoring Gu Beichen''s fierce eyes. After looking at Jian Mo, who was already drunk, she said, "Mo Mo said... That apartment may be your divorce compensation for her." Gu Beichen''s handsome face, as cold as a carving, suddenly sank down. Under the drizzle, it was particularly fierce. "However, Chen Shao... Are you going to divorce Mo Mo?" Li Xiaoyue pretended to be a little confused and asked. Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but coldly restrained his eyes and looked at Jian Mo, who shook his head to wake up. Then he pulled her arm and walked in the direction of the car Jian Mo was drunk and caught in the rain again. Some of them were top heavy and light. Gu Beichen pulled her and stumbled. She could hardly keep up, "slow down... Ah! Gu Beichen, you hurt me..." Gu Beichen gently stuffed Jian Mo into the co pilot, then motioned Xiao Jing to take the car key and looked back at Li Xiaoyue. "I''ll take Miss Li back." Xiao Jing hurriedly took the initiative to take the task. Gu Beichen didn''t speak. He opened the door of the driver''s seat and got into the car. He saw that Jane Mo wanted to open the door... After he pressed the central lock slowly, he pulled her back and fastened her seat belt. Jane Mo has some strength to return to the wine. "I came with Xiao Yue. I want to go with her!" With that, she went to unfasten her seat belt. Gu Beichen has never seen Jian Mo drunk. If she danced Tango alone at that time, how addicted she made him, then he is disgusted with her now. "Xiao Jing will send her!" Gu Beichen endured the flame rising in his heart. Jane Mo was reluctant to untie her seat belt, "don''t you care..." "Jane Mo!" Gu Beichen was a little annoyed by Jane Mo''s irrationality. Seeing her drunken and confused look, he held back and said, "Li Xiaoyue didn''t have a miscarriage for long. Are you going to let her accompany you in the rain and then fall into the root of the disease?" The cold voice hissed coldly. Gu Beichen saw that Jian Mo was still struggling and said with a sneer: "Jian Mo, you are so selfish!" Jane Mo gradually stopped trying to untie her seat belt. She looked at Gu Beichen vaguely and began to breathe heavily. "Gu Beichen, you''re selfish!" She screamed, her nose suddenly sour, and her already reddish eyes became more and more red. Gu Beichen deeply coagulated Jian mo. after a while, he slowly said, "I let you move out of lanze garden... Jian Mo, you''re not happy, are you?" Without waiting for Jane Mo''s answer, he continued to ask, "are you unhappy because I let you move away, or are you unhappy because you don''t have a villa?" Chapter 119 Gu Beichen''s words made Jian Mo''s thoughts stagnate. First, he fanned the eyelashes stained with tears or rain. He looked at him for a long time with empty eyes and said, "I''m not happy? Why am I not happy?" She asked in reply that over the past two years, the subconscious disguise has covered the humble mood, "I''m very happy... It''s because of my happiness that I came out to celebrate tonight!" Jane Mo said with a little big tongue. She didn''t see Gu Beichen''s cold face. She continued: "ah Chen, thank you..." She grinned, put her arm around Gu Beichen''s neck, and then came forward and kissed him on his handsome face, "I really, really like my new residence... Hehe..." Gu Beichen''s breath became more and more gloomy. As soon as he pulled away Jian Mo''s arm, he started the car The car sped wildly in the drizzle. Many times it narrowly avoided the oncoming car, which made the originally quiet night noisy because of the car''s whistle. "Stop... Uh... Stop..." Jane Mo couldn''t stand such a speed because she drank wine. After a while, her stomach was like tumbling over rivers and seas. Gu Beichen didn''t care. He just stepped on the accelerator and pressed down "Ah Chen... Uh... Stop... Uh... Stop..." Jane Mo endured with her last reason, but she couldn''t help it. "Squeak -" The harsh brake sound was particularly abrupt on a rainy night. At the moment when the car stopped, Jane Mo opened the door and ran out, holding a tree and began to vomit. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with dark eyes, bent over and vomited there. His face was as black as it should be. After a while, he got out of the car, took a bottle of water from the trunk, opened it, went to Jane Mo and handed it to her. Jane Mo is still spitting, but there''s nothing to spit... She didn''t eat at night. She tried to drink on an empty stomach. It''s like a pair of tongs stirring in her stomach. It''s burning and painful. Jane Mo frowned sadly, and her men stroked her stomach consciously. Her face had been bitter together because of vomiting and pain. "Deserved it!" Gu Beichen opened his mouth coldly and handed the water forward. Jane Mo looked at him, swallowed hard, took the water and rinsed... But the pain in her stomach made her bend over again. Looking at Jian Mo''s painful expression, Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually became deep, "did you have dinner at night?" Jane bit her teeth and didn''t hurt her stomach. Gu Beichen''s sight is getting deeper and deeper. With his face taut, he goes forward to hold Jian Mo horizontally and walks to the car Jian Mo subconsciously curled up. She didn''t know if she was afraid of Gu Beichen seeing the painful expression on her face. She buried her face in Gu Beichen''s chest. Looking at Jian Mo''s dependence, Gu Beichen looked a little deeper and put her gently into the car, then tied her seat belt and went to the driver''s seat. The speed was not slow, but drove steadily to lanze garden. Jian Mo looked at the street view around him, frowned slightly, endured the pain in his stomach, and weakly reminded: "this is not the way to Runze garden..." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered coldly. "Where are we going?" Jane Mo asked again. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, then looked ahead and said coldly, "go back to lanze garden." "I have moved to Runze garden." Jane Mo said somewhat capriciously. "So what?" Gu Beichen asked coldly. Jane Mo pressed her hand on her stomach and said, "I''ve brought all my clothes..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered again indifferently. Jian Mo was made a little angry by his "cold violence", gritted his teeth and said, "I want to go back to Runze garden." With a squeak, the car suddenly stopped in the middle of the road. Fortunately, it was late at night and the road to the villa area. There was no car on the road. "Jane Mo, what are you wayward?" Gu Beichen sneered coldly, and the eagle''s eyes looked at Jian Mo coldly. Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen in a daze, and suddenly the corners of her mouth smiled, "capricious?" She said softly and felt even more funny. "Ah Chen, I''ve been married to you for two years... Do you think the description of ''willful'' is suitable for me?" Gu Beichen''s eyes suddenly became familiar with it. Yes, since Jane Mo married him, she has never had anything to do with the word capricious... It is because she is not capricious and everything seems indifferent that makes him more angry! Jane Mo took a deep breath and didn''t look at Beichen''s sight that seemed to be able to see through, "ah Chen..." her voice was soft and waxy, "my clothes are wet. Can I go back first?" She raised her eyes, fanned her eyes, and looked pitiful. "I have an upset stomach, so I''ll probably catch a cold later... I have to draw the design drawing of the club. I don''t want to go to bed with no chance." Yes, that''s the look of Lai Lai jiaochen... Gu Beichen''s favorite look of Jian Mo in the past two years, but now it''s very annoying. That day, he thought a lot about Jane Mo''s appearance of moving out of lanzeyuan, but he didn''t want to think about her face... When he saw her expression, he was angry. Yes, I was angry... I couldn''t hold my breath and went straight away. For the next two days, he ignored her and just asked Xiao Jing to prepare the house and move for her... When Xiao Jing came back, he overheard Xiao Jing tell Susan that she was very happy to move! Yes, very happy! She has always been just greedy for material and money, that''s all! What he wants is such a wife, and she has done very well... What is he angry with? The car started dark again Turning the front of the car and driving on the road, there was a harsh sound when the tires rubbed the ground. The pain in her stomach became more and more intense. Jian Mo pressed her stomach, turned her face to the other side, and tightly bit her lower lip to endure the pain... She didn''t know what wind she was smoking. Anyway, she was proud and didn''t want Gu Beichen to see her forbearance. The street lights outside were quickly thrown behind, and the neon was pulled into a bright and blurred light River in the rain Jane Mo''s head also began to ache, and her body was cold in bursts. Gu Beichen glanced at the simple foam with slightly trembling eyes. While the eagle''s eyes were dark, he opened the heating to the maximum. When the warm wind blows, the cold feeling on Jane Mo''s body is slightly relieved, but the pain in her stomach is still intermittent, which makes her breathing messy and heavy. When she arrived at the underground parking lot of runzeyuan, Jane Mo had closed her eyes in a daze. She didn''t know whether it was because of the strength of wine or dizziness. Gu Beichen stopped the car and looked at Jian Mo''s appearance. He was angry. Get out of the car, take Jian Mo out, take the elevator upstairs... In one go. Jian Mo nestled in Gu Beichen''s arms and looked vaguely at his firm chin. Suddenly, his nose was suddenly sour and his eyes were red. Gu Beichen looked down... Jane Mo quickly buried her face in his chest and covered all her sadness. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked ahead. "If you don''t want to move, you can''t move!" Chapter 120 Jane Mo just arched in Gu Beichen''s arms and didn''t speak. Gu Beichen sighed quietly. He just felt as if something had changed... But he didn''t seriously think about what had changed. At the right time, "Ding" came and the elevator reached the top floor. Press the password and lock into the house. Gu Beichen looked around and took the remote control. After pressing the central control setting, he took Jian Mo to the bathroom in the bedroom. "Take a hot bath first..." he said in a low voice, looked at Jian Mo with red eyes and turned out of the bathroom. Jane Mo droops her eyes and laughs at herself. She feels more and more pretentious Because the stomach is still in bursts of pain, coupled with the severe dizziness and pain caused by the rain after drinking, Jian Mo just washed it casually and put on a bathrobe to go out. Gu Beichen is not in the bedroom. Jian Mo is in no mood to ignore whether he has left or not. He just lies on the bed, takes a pillow and cushions it in his stomach, trying to bear the pain. I don''t know how long it took. When Jian Mo was a little confused with a headache, the door of the bedroom opened and Gu Beichen came in with a bowl in his hand "Get up and drink this." Gu Beichen''s voice was low and indifferent. Jane Mo blinked unreal. "I don''t want to take medicine... I''ll be fine after lying down for a while." Gu Beichen frowned at the sword eyebrow in an instant, and sank his eyes at the fact that Jian Mo didn''t like taking medicine like Shen Chu. After putting the bowl on the bedside table, he leaned over. Regardless of whether Jane Mo wanted it or not, Gu Beichen helped her up. "It''s not medicine..." he said. He had sat by the bed and took the bowl again. The faint fragrance came, and Jane Mo looked down, and the dark red soup exuded a warm smell. The entrance is a little spicy, but when you turn around, it is covered by the sweet smell... Ginger black tea slides from the taste buds into your throat. After a while, there is a warm feeling in your stomach. "Where did this come from?" Jane Mo asked somewhat weakly. Gu Beichen put down his bowl indifferently and didn''t speak. Jane Mo looked at his taut face and suddenly smiled, "did you endure it?" Gu Beichen snorted coldly, but still didn''t speak. Jane Mo smiled. Under the light, some pale little faces became particularly charming because of this smile. "You can still cook this..." she suddenly raised her eyebrows, "ah Chen, haven''t you survived for women?" If it was just a joke, Gu Beichen''s eyes were dark, and Jane Mo immediately "clattered" in her heart. "You are the second!" Gu Beichen spoke faintly. "Really?" As long as Jane doesn''t know who is the first to fall off the cliff, she will stop talking, as long as she doesn''t know who is the first to fall off the cliff Gu Beichen took a deep look at Jian Mo, stood up without saying anything, and then went to get the hair dryer... Motioned Jian Mo to lean his head on his leg. He turned on the hair dryer and began to blow to her. The warm wind came with the sound of "sobbing". Jane Mo tried not to think about who was the first person, but just followed the warm wind to calm her heart. It suddenly occurred to me at this moment... In fact, two people haven''t been in bed for two years. Jane Mo, if this is the last time, let it end calmly... At least, you don''t lose all. "Ah Chen..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered indifferently. Jane Mo raised her eyes and stared at him, "will you participate in the competition that day?" "No." Gu Beichen said coldly, "I have to participate in this matter. I''m not busy to death?" Jane Mo immediately asked, "then why did you attend such a small meeting that day?" Gu Beichen frowned at the moment, and the eagle''s eyes were deep in Jian Mo''s line of sight. Jane Mo smiled cunningly, picked the corner of her eye and said proudly, "no... Because I want to see if I remember the anniversary of the meeting?" "..." Gu Beichen''s eyes brightened deeply. "You can be more narcissistic and say I want to create a chance to see you." Jane Mo turned over, because after drinking ginger tea, the pain in her stomach was less, and her whole body looked much more energetic than before. "In fact, I want to say so." Gu Beichen sneered and turned off the hair dryer, "I have no right or ability to stop your thinking." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth, and glanced at Gu Beichen''s sneer, but muttered, "it''s best if you don''t go that day!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply, and his thin lips scratched a faint smile. He coldly raised his eyebrows and asked, "why, I''m afraid I''ll see you lose?" "You must know I''ll lose?" Jane hummed. Gu Beichen sneered. Without talking, he got up and went to the bathroom... After a while, the sound of shower came from inside. Jane Mo lay on the pillow and didn''t know if she had changed the environment. She resisted in her heart. Gu Beichen took a bath and came out. He saw Jian Mo''s free look, "not comfortable yet?" He frowned slightly. "Do you want to go to the hospital?" "No, it''s much better..." Jane Mo mumbled, "just changed the environment and didn''t adapt." Gu Beichen sighed secretly and lay on the bed to take Jian Mo into his arms. The low voice overflowed his thin lips magnetically, "in my arms, don''t you adapt?" Jane Mo was a little cool in her heart, but the corners of her mouth smiled, "my husband''s arms are very good..." she said, and she raised her face slightly and kissed Gu Beichen''s mouth. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, "if you think your body can bear me now, I don''t mind you continuing to play with fire..." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she immediately honestly nestled in Gu Beichen''s arms. "Mo''er..." "Huh?" Jane Mo answered softly. Gu Beichen''s thin lips moved back and forth. In the end, he swallowed what he was going to say and just said, "sleep!" "Well... Good night, husband!" "Good night!" Gu Beichen said, took the remote control and turned off the light. In the dark, Jian Mo nestled in Gu Beichen''s arms and didn''t move. Gu Beichen opened his eyes, and the ink pupil was as deep as the decision-maker in the dark silence, letting his breath follow the dignified darkness. The night is gradually silent under the drizzle, but it can''t stop the footsteps of people who live at night. When Shen Chu came home from a party with some former friends, he saw that the light in the villa was still on, slightly clenched his hand, and walked in with her proud steps "Dad, haven''t you slept yet?" Shen Chu looked at Shen Hangzhi sitting on the sofa reading the newspaper and said hello. "Yes." Shen Hangzhi folded the newspaper and looked at Shen Chu. "I''m waiting for you." Shen Chu sipped his lips and walked over. "Is Dad busy so late?" "You''ve been back for a few days," Shen Hang''s eyes were sharp. "What''s the matter with Gu Beichen?" Shen Chu lowered her eyes, covered the strange look at the bottom of her eyes and said calmly: "we''ve been separated for five years, not to mention..." she raised her eyes and has collected the strange look at the bottom of her eyes, "... How can he say now that he''s also married." Hearing this, Shen hang said coldly, "JK can''t last for two months at most. Shen Chu, don''t you understand the purpose of your return this time?" Chapter 121 Shen Chu slightly clenched his hand, his eyelashes trembled slightly, and then said, "I know..." she secretly clenched her teeth, "Dad, if it''s all right, I''ll go upstairs first." "Yes." Shen Hangzhi answered the voice indifferently, looked at Shen Chu with far-reaching and sharp eyes, and said, "I will do what I promised you, but... Xiaochu, you''d better see what the situation is now." Shen chugang''s body stagnated. After tightening his lower lip, he looked back at Shen Hangzhi and said, "Dad, since I''m back, I won''t let JK have an accident... I''ll find a way in Beichen." Then she sipped her lips and turned upstairs. Closing the bedroom door, Shen Chu leaned weakly against the door. Then, his hand clenched into a fist and tried to bear it The rain outside suddenly began to fall heavily, and it was'' crackling ''on the window, which made people feel more and more irritable. When the mobile phone rang in time, Shen Chu opened his bag, took out his mobile phone, looked at the call, and suddenly... A feeling of forbearance appeared on his face. She picked it up and put it in her ear. She tried her best and shouted calmly, "Mom..." "Yes." Luo yueman answered and asked, "it''s late over there, isn''t it?" "I can''t help but go down to the bed and call Shen Chu." She asked a little knowingly. Luo yueman replied and then said, "Xiao Chu, don''t blame your father..." as she said, she sighed, "it''s not easy for your father these years." Shen Chu suddenly wanted to laugh. "It''s not easy for him. What about me?" She sat up with red eyes, "five years ago, I had to leave because of his word, and five years later... I will come back because of his word." She gritted her teeth. "Mom, I''m a human, not a robot!" Luo yueman''s nose was also sour. "Xiaochu, this time... Just for mom, okay?" Shen Chu took a breath secretly, endured the dense water mist in her eyes, slightly looked up and said, "it''s because of you..." she couldn''t control anymore, hung up the phone, leaned down on the pillow and sobbed. The rain is getting heavier and heavier. It''s like washing the lead of the earth. After Gu Beichen listened to Jian Mo''s gradually uniform breathing sound, he gently pulled his arm, and then slowly put her back on the pillow Jane Mo turned a little uneasy and continued to sleep behind her. Gu Beichen got up after seeing that she didn''t wake up. After taking the mobile phone out of the bedroom, Gu Beichen went to the balcony and dialed a group of numbers, "how''s it going?" Xiao Jing rubbed his eyebrows. "Still tracking..." he continued after a pause. "Chen Shao, it''s weird." "Huh?" Gu Beichen said softly. Looking at the news uploaded from the computer, Xiao Jing paused and said, "when taking out the things over JK, he accidentally found some things five years ago... I think it''s possible that JK and second master Huai have long been tied together." Gu Beichen''s eyes became cold, his eyes narrowed slightly, and said coldly, "the emperor is about to celebrate his anniversary... I''m looking forward to what gift the second uncle will bring me this time." Xiao Jing was obviously a little heavy, "Chen Shao, JK is going to buy it this time. The second master Huai hasn''t come back for several years. Suddenly, this joint is going to come back... It''s too strange." "What should be solved is always solved..." Gu Beichen''s cold face has recovered calm. The next morning, the rain came later than usual, and the air was mixed with the smell of damp and cold When Jian Mo woke up, Gu Beichen was gone. She rubbed her dizzy head and looked around. She didn''t see Gu Beichen... Finally, her eyes fell on the note on the bedside table. I picked it up and saw it write: I hope the next time you tango, it''s in my hand! Jane Mo was slightly stunned and instantly remembered what happened last night. After "Teng", her face turned red in an instant. I wanted to give my heart a farewell ceremony, but I didn''t know I would finally meet Gu Beichen... Not only that, but also destroyed all the camouflage in the past two years. The sight subconsciously looked at the empty bowl still placed on the bedside table, and Jian Mo''s sight gradually became lax... Finally, with a self mocking smile from the corners of his mouth, he looked down at the note, "I''m afraid... There will never be this opportunity." After pulling the corners of her mouth dryly, Jane Mo put the note in the drawer to wash It''s still raining outside, pattering. Because there is only one street from runzeyuan to Lingyu international, and Jian Mo didn''t drive, she just walked past with an umbrella. Jane Mo just turned out of the Runze garden and was suddenly stopped by a man. She didn''t care. She just slightly deviated from the direction and wanted to continue walking, but the man stopped in front of her again. Jane Mo frowned, raised her eyes and leaned back her umbrella at the same time... When she saw the person who stopped her, she widened her eyes in an instant, "Jane truss!" Two words, Jian Mo said gnashing his teeth. Jane truss smiled, "Xiaomo, don''t you cry?" Jian Mo''s hand holding the umbrella handle tightened in an instant, and her eyes also overflowed with the light of resentment. Her breath was a little hasty. At the moment when she saw Jane truss, it seemed that all her thoughts were pulled back to two years ago, "brother? Ha ha..." she smiled, "do you still deserve me to call ''brother''?" Jane truss looked around, and passers-by''s eyes projected, "Xiaomo, let''s find a place to talk." "Jane, what else can I talk to you about?" Each word was squeezed out of Jian Mo''s teeth, and her eyes turned red instantly. "Talk about what you did to me two years ago, or about Dad''s death?" She roared as if she had poured out the deepest sadness accumulated in her heart for two years. Jane stringer looked around and saw more and more lines of sight projected from nearby. She secretly feigned. As soon as she pulled Jane Mo''s hand, she was going to walk into the alley on one side. Jane Mo also forgot to struggle. She didn''t remember until she was pulled close to the alley. "Jane truss, let me go..." she roared. Seeing that Jane truss didn''t let go, she raised her foot and kicked him hard on his leg. Jian Heng suffered from pain. As soon as his subconscious hand was loose, Jian Mo broke away from his grip. Jane Mo didn''t know why Jane Chang suddenly appeared. He was hiding from her that day, but today he stopped in front of her recklessly, "disappeared for two years... How can you still have the face to appear in front of me?" Jane truss looked deep and said, "if I can, I don''t want to appear!" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she looked at Jane Chang coldly and said, "then why don''t you show up... Why don''t you show up in front of me all your life?" She clung to the handle of the umbrella and looked at Jian Chang, who didn''t feel guilty at all. She said with gnashing teeth, "Jian Chang, the last person I want to see in my life is you!" Words fall, Jane Mo tightly bites her teeth and turns around. She is afraid that if she stays for another second, she will collapse. "Xiaomo, I need money..." Jian Heng endured and said in the end, "not much, just a million!" Jane Mo listened to the footsteps and turned around. Looking at the greed on Jane Chang''s face, she suddenly wanted to laugh, and she did smile, "Jane Chang, why do you think... After you treat me like that, I will give you money?" Her eyes became as cold as the weather. "Don''t say I don''t have so much money. Even if I have it, I won''t give it to you!" This time, Jian Mo didn''t want to stay any longer. She turned around and accelerated her steps to leave Jane truss gritted her teeth and hurriedly said to her back, "do you have a good relationship with Gu Beichen?" Seeing that Jane Mo kept walking, he hurriedly said, "Jane Mo, you don''t want to expose the fact that you slept with the black boss two years ago?" Chapter 122 Jane Mo stopped at once. Her body was shaking uncontrollably. After a long time, she bit her teeth and turned pale. She looked at Jane truss and screamed: "Jane truss... Are you still not human?" Jian Heng was very cold in his heart, but he quickly pressed down the guilt and said, "I don''t want to... But I urgently need money now!" He took two steps forward, grabbed Jian Mo''s arm and said, "you have a good relationship with Gu Beichen, don''t you? One million, as long as one million... One million is not even a fart for Gu Beichen... Xiaomo, please help me and help brother?" Jane Mo clenched her teeth and tried to break free from the clamp of Jane truss. The umbrella fell off and the rain fell on her. It was cold and piercing, making her fall into an ice cave. "I don''t know Gu Beichen well... I don''t have a million!" She trembled her teeth and said, "Jane truss, my mother is still in the hospital. I''ve worked hard enough to keep my mother alive..." she couldn''t help crying, "you can ignore my mother''s life or death, but how can you still appear in front of me in such a situation --" Jian Mo roared, and the sadness accumulated in her heart for two years broke out uncontrollably... Because that night, she and Chu Zixiao were no longer possible. Because that night, she "sold" herself to Gu Beichen Also because that night, her life completely changed! Jian Mo''s eyes were cold, and the last trace of family affection for Jian Heng completely disappeared because he mentioned that night again Black boss ha-ha! It turned out that the person that night was a black boss... She was just a goods under her brother''s hand and sold to a black boss! Jane Mo''s heart ached. The dirty feeling made her already empty stomach churn up. She wanted to vomit, but she couldn''t vomit. It made her very uncomfortable. "Xiaomo, I can''t help it either..." Jane truss gritted her teeth. If he wasn''t forced to hurry, he didn''t want to look back for Jian mo. Two years ago, he couldn''t help it. However, Jian Mo was his sister. In order to pay off the debt to the underground bank, he had to send her sister. Yes, he has lost his conscience... At that time, he really had no way. Regardless of the pain of being clamped, Jane Mo twisted her arm and pulled it out. "I have no money, and now I want someone to give me a million..." she stared at her scarlet eyes and gnashed her teeth. "Jane truss, I have no way. Do you want to help me?" "Why can''t you?" Jian Heng widened his eyes, "obviously you have a good relationship with Gu Beichen..." he smiled greedily, "Xiaomo, did you also have sex with Gu Beichen? Did he get his mother''s medical expenses?" Jian Mo looked at Jian Heng and said more and more. Her eyes overflowed with strange and greedy eyes. She suddenly felt ridiculous, "do you think I can trample on myself after you send me to a man''s bed?" "I don''t mean that..." he said hurriedly, "Jane Mo, you have something to do with Gu Beichen... It must be so, isn''t it?" He stared. "If not, he wouldn''t have done so much to help you last time." Jane Mo threw away the hand that Jane Chang was about to catch, and didn''t respond to what he said, but said coldly: "I don''t know him... Jane Chang, I really hope there has never been a you in the Jane family!" She said with gnashing teeth, turned and left. "Why don''t you know him?" Jian Heng strode forward and stopped Jian Mo''s way, "you know... If you don''t know, he wouldn''t have beaten my friend half to death for you last time, and he wouldn''t have planted a Trojan horse for my computer in order to sink your accident into the sea!" Jane was stunned. "What did you say?" Jian Heng looked at Jian Mo''s stunned expression and said with his pupils dilated, "last time your car hit someone... Don''t you know? You hit my friend... Su Jun was passing by at that time, so he solved it for you." Jane Mo didn''t speak, but unexpectedly, she had "met" with Jane truss to some extent. "You hit so badly, but Su Junli just wanted to send him away..." Jian Heng''s eyes were muddy with boiling water. "Just in time, on the day it rained and you met me, I thought you had something to do with Gu Beichen''s special help. I just wanted that little money, so I gave him the video of your accident... But who knows, it was Gu Beichen waiting for me in the evening." Jane Mo was stunned and speechless. "Xiaomo, if you only have something to do with his special help, how can he be there? He also dealt with the aftermath for you... In the end, we didn''t get anything, because he destroyed all the evidence." Jian Heng grabbed Jian Mo''s shoulder, "you have something to do with Gu Beichen, don''t you? I only want one million yuan. Can you find Gu Beichen, one million yuan!" Jane Mo''s brain is a little empty. Gu Beichen doesn''t know what she has done. "Xiao Mo," Jian Heng shook Jian Mo with great strength, "give me a million, I won''t appear in front of you in the future..." Jian Mo was about to recover. She stared at Jian Heng and squeezed her words out of her teeth word by word, "I have nothing to do with him... I don''t have a million! Jian Heng, if you have a little conscience, don''t degenerate any more..." Jane Morse tore away the imprisonment of Jane truss. This time, those who never stayed wanted to leave. "Jian Mo," said Jian Heng, whose eyes began to turn scarlet and his face began to turn wrong. "If you don''t give me a million yuan, I can only go to Gu Beichen... Since he can solve the accident for you last time, I think he must be very interested in your going to bed with the black boss two years ago!" Jane Mo stopped in an instant. She looked at Jane truss with a pale face and looked at him with an unbelievable face. She screamed with some collapse: "Jane truss, do I owe you in my last life?" Tears, finally mixed with the rain, burned his cheeks, and finally fainted at the corners of his mouth... The bitter taste was even more sad. Jian Mo felt that her life had been completely destroyed from that night two years ago! Jian Heng''s eyes became more red and angry. "Three days, only three days... If I can''t get the money in three days, I can only go to Gu Beichen to get the money..." he gritted his teeth, "Xiao Mo, I''m not kidding... I''ll come to you in three days!" He looked at Jian Mo closely, "just be my brother, I''m sorry for you!" Then he shook his hand and turned away. Jane Mo leaned against the wall with weak legs and feet. Her eyes were empty looking at the front without human trace, biting her lips to keep her from crying Tears, like raindrops, keep falling down. Jane Mo thought that Jane Chang had just threatened her with her lost first night. Suddenly... Her stomach churned again, and she began to retch when holding the wall with her hand Chapter 123 The autumn rain filled the air with a cold smell. Jian Mo supported her arm on the design platform, dragged her chin on the back of her hand, and looked at the rain beating on the window with empty eyes, winding out cracks. "Dong Dong!" There was a knock on the door. Jian Mo subconsciously looked at the glass door and saw Ding Dang come in. "Mo Mo," Ding Dang handed a folder to Jian Mo, "this is the total number of design orders last month. If you see it, sign it." "Hmm..." Jane Mo answered, opened the pen and went to sign. There was no sense of any movement machinery. Ding Dang frowned, "Mo Mo Mo, are you all right? I see you''re not in good spirits..." Jane Mo was interrupted by Ding Dang just when she wanted to write, and suddenly remembered that she had not checked the list. Laughing at herself, she shook her head to show that she had nothing to do. She looked through the list and finally signed it after confirming that it was correct. "If you don''t feel well, go back early..." Ding Dang said with the folder in his arms. "Anyway, president Yu also said that before the imperial Club compares the draft, you can set your own time." In order to let Jian Mo draw the design drawing of the imperial Club wholeheartedly, Yu Ziyun explained that Jian Mo can not punch in or leave at any time during her working hours these days... All other jobs are avoided in order to give her an independent design space. "Yes." Jane answered and said nothing. Ding Dang thought that Jane Mo was a little strange, but he didn''t know where it was, so he didn''t go out. Because of the appearance of Jian Chang in the morning, Jian Mo was confused in the afternoon and didn''t eat at noon. His mind was chaotic and didn''t have any design inspiration. In the afternoon, Jane Mo''s stomach began to burn again, with bursts of pain. Then I remembered that she hadn''t eaten a mouthful since last night. Jane Mo said to Xiang night and left the company and went back to Runze park. Her stomach was empty, but she didn''t want to eat anything. Took the remote control and opened the light shield on the roof, suddenly revealing a large piece of toughened glass Jane Mo lay on the couch and turned on the air conditioner... Listening to the sound of the rain beating on the glass, she looked out numbly. With a "drop", a text message came in from the mobile phone. Jane Mo took it and opened it. It''s a strange number, but the content is not strange at all: Xiao Mo, I''ll come to you to get the money in three days. Jane Mo held the mobile phone tightly, as if it was Jane truss''s neck... But the strength became weak after only a few seconds. A million... Where is she going to find a million? The last time I had to change my mother''s heart, I already got two million yuan with Gu Beichen... But sadly, I didn''t change my heart and I couldn''t get the money back for the time being. How can she ask Gu Beichen for money now? However, what if Jian Heng really went to Gu Beichen two years ago for money? Jane Mo''s heart was in a mess. On the one hand, she was afraid of being exposed that night two years ago. On the other hand, she knew clearly that if she gave Jane the money this time, it might be a bottomless hole. Jian Mo looked at the toughened glass powerlessly, watched those big raindrops fall, and her heart screwed up ¡­¡­ "The 45th Anniversary of emperor group," Gu Beichen said faintly, with eagle eyes gliding over the shareholders present, "as the company''s veteran, I hope everyone knows what the meaning of the next development plan is." Then he took the lead and said, "break up the meeting." Gu Beichen looked at Gu Ci and other sisters, and then took the lead in leaving the conference room. After Gu Ci, Gu Yuan and Gu Nanyi looked at each other, they also got up and followed Gu Beichen to his office. "The fourth is afraid to talk about shares..." Gu Yuanfeng picked her eyes slightly and hissed at the corners of her mouth. Gu CI looked at Gu Yuan and said coldly, "Beichen hasn''t hidden his purpose..." "Yo, elder sister, how do you feel like you''re going to give up your shares?" Gu Yuan sniffed coldly, disdaining her face with heavy makeup. Gu CI solemnly raised his eyebrows. "Grandpa''s last wish, I hope Gu''s shares will be together... Beichen respects grandpa so much, it''s not sooner or later?" Gu Nan looked at the two sisters with a smile at the corners of his mouth, but shook his head and didn''t say anything At the right time, the sound of "Ding" came, and the elevator arrived at the president''s office area on the top floor of the emperor. Xiao Jing was at the entrance of the elevator. He saw three people arrive and took them to the office... Looking at the look of the three people, a smile overflowed from the bottom of his eyes, but the smile was full of complex emotions. "Bring in two cups of coffee and a cup of scented tea." Gu Beichen said calmly to Susan. Susan answered, took the documents signed by Gu Beichen, nodded slightly with Gu Ci and others, and walked out of the office... Coffee and herbal tea came in quickly, but it was only a few minutes, and there was already a piece of condensation in the huge office. It was raining harder and harder, and the sound of "crackling" and drums fell on several people''s hearts. Gu CI is still hesitant. Gu Beichen talked to her about the shares last time when she was in Lishan villa... However, the emperor''s 5% stake in the Yujing lake has not weighed the pros and cons. Gu Yuan always had the element of going to the theatre and didn''t make a clear statement "My condition is Blossom & TB," Gu Nanyi said directly. "Beichen, you know." Gu Beichen smiled and didn''t speak. Gu Nanyi didn''t say much. He took the pen directly and signed the equity transfer agreement with an indifferent face, "I heard that the second uncle is coming back this time?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen looked at Gu Nanyi''s signed agreement indifferently, took another agreement and handed it to her, saying, "this is the transfer contract of Blossom & TB." Gu Nanyi smiled and calmly accepted, "Xiaomi said you owe her a favor. She''s free tonight." She picked her eyebrows and was helpless. "Beichen, you are also an elder. Don''t let them all day." Gu Beichen''s thin lips were slightly hooked and opened his mouth lightly: "invite her to dinner in the evening." Gu Nanyi shook his head and couldn''t stand his eyes. "I''ll go first... Elder sister, second sister, are you going?" "Together!" The two of them haven''t decided yet. It''s not necessary to spend here at the moment. After the three men left, Xiao Jing came in, "Chen Shao?" "Now I have 38% of the shares in my third sister''s hand and 32% in my second uncle''s hand. If I want to occupy a favorable position, the shares in the hands of my eldest sister and second sister must be taken back..." Gu Beichen said and looked at the time. It was past 5 p.m. I took my cell phone and dialed the number... But for a long time, no one answered. With a slight frown, he dialed again, and no one answered. Xiao Jing craned his neck and looked at Gu Beichen. The corner of his mouth grinned and asked, "Chen Shao, call Miss Jane?" He asked some knowingly. Gu Beichen gave him a cold look, then pulled off his suit and walked out while wearing it Luo Xiaomi naturally knows what the purpose of this meal is. He is just curious about the little Aunt Jane mo. They are all from their own families. Although Xiaomi is usually crazy, she still has discretion. It doesn''t hurt to let her meet. Gu Beichen directly drove to the Runze garden, pressed the password, locked the door, and rushed into the hot air Slightly frown. After Gu Beichen looked around, his eyes fell on the couch... Jian Mo curled up, closed his eyes, and frowned tightly, looking a little painful. Gu Beichen was so cold in his heart that he strode forward, "Jane Mo?" Chapter 124 Jian Mo''s eyebrows wrinkled tighter and didn''t open her eyes, but her body curled up again because of Gu Beichen''s touch Gu Beichen frowned and squatted down, "Mo''er?" Jane Mo not only didn''t wake up, but her body began to tremble slightly Gu Beichen''s eyebrows frowned tighter. He raised his hand and touched Jian Mo''s forehead, which was a little hot. "Don''t..." Jane Mo suddenly uttered in horror, "don''t touch me... Don''t... Don''t touch me..." she seemed to be living by a nightmare. With the frightened voice, she suddenly raised her hand and waved Gu Beichen''s hand with a slap. Gu Beichen''s cold face coagulated, "Jane foam!" As soon as Jian Mo''s body shook, she suddenly woke up and sat up with a big breath. Even, there was a terrible panic in the bottom of my eyes, as if I had encountered a particularly terrible thing. Gu Beichen just looked at her quietly. After a while, he saw that she didn''t slow down. Subconsciously, he came forward and wanted to bring her over "Let go!" Jane Mo suddenly screamed sharply, "don''t touch me -" Gu Beichen''s face turned black in an instant. The man got up and looked down, "Jane Mo, what are you crazy about?" Jian Mo subconsciously looked up... The blurred and turbid sight looked up at Gu Beichen''s deep and invisible eagle eyes, and suddenly surprised in his heart, "ah Chen?" Light Yi''s voice showed a trace of doubt. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s appearance. Obviously, she just didn''t know it was him! This cognition made Gu Beichen''s anger "rub" go up, "why, I can''t even touch you now, can I?" Jane Mo quickly stood up and without saying anything, came forward and hugged Gu Beichen''s waist, and then put her cheek on his chest Gu Beichen wanted to pull her away, but she held her tighter. "Why, don''t let me touch you, you can touch me?" Gu Beichen sneered. Jian Mo''s breath hasn''t calmed down yet. She just listened to Gu Beichen''s strong heartbeat with a cold breath, "I just had a nightmare..." she closed her eyes and covered up all the resistance at the bottom of her eyes. Gu Beichen''s sideburns moved slightly, "why? Did you have a stupid dream again?" Jane Mo didn''t answer, but her hand around Gu Beichen''s waist tightened. It rained so heavily that night two years ago. The raindrops beat the window like stones... She was hot and dry all over, and her thoughts knew to resist, but she couldn''t help welcoming the man. Thinking of this, Jane Mo''s body trembled more and more. She didn''t know who it was. At least she could imagine for herself and comfort herself But now... Even though I still don''t know who it is? But the other party is a black boss. When she thinks of such a person, she feels dirty and makes her stomach sick. "Vomit..." Jane Mo suddenly retched, then pushed away Gu Beichen and ran to the bathroom. Gu Beichen didn''t respond. He looked at the direction of the bathroom and couldn''t help frowning at the sound of retching inside When he came forward, he stood at the bathroom door and looked at Jian Mo''s sad appearance. Jun''s faces twisted together, "Jian Mo?" He whispered. Jane Mo couldn''t spit anything because she hadn''t eaten. She just... After vomiting a few times, her stomach began to cramp and ache again. She covered her stomach because her face was wrinkled with pain. Gu Beichen came forward with a Yin measurement on his face, bent over and picked up Jian Mo and walked to the bedroom. Then he called Li Yunze, "come here..." and paused, "the top floor of building 4, block C, Runze park." Li Yunze was stunned. "The Golden House hides Jiao?" He uttered a voice with deep thought. "It''s Jane mo." Gu Beichen said coldly and didn''t give Li Yunze time to doubt. He just hung up and looked at Jian Mo coldly, "have you eaten today?" Jane Mo curled up in bed and shook her head feebly. "Jane Mo, why don''t you starve to death?" Gu Beichen spoke coldly and angrily, and then angrily dialed Xiao Jing''s phone and asked him to send some food. Li Yunze arrived first and checked Jian mo. It''s just that drinking on an empty stomach causes stomach acid, and catching a cold without eating causes stomach spasm. It''s no big problem... It''s just that the nerve pressure is too high. Put Jiang HaoChen''s tea on his bedside table, "don''t drink it!" Li Yunze glanced at Beichen and looked at the bowl of ginger black tea. His face changed slightly. His eyes were deep and went out of the bedroom. Xiao Jing just came over. Because he was worried, he was wet, "Li Shao!" "People are inside..." Li Yunze looked back, then went to the wine cabinet and took out a bottle of red wine and two cups. Xiao Jing came out after sending porridge. Li Yunze asked, "how did Jane Mo move here?" "Chen Shao said it was convenient for her to go to work..." Xiao Jing rubbed his nose. "Tut Tut," Li Yunze disdained, "it''s been two years. Now it''s inconvenient. Will it be too pretentious?" Xiao Jing pulled the corners of his mouth and could only shrug at Li Yunze''s sharp rhetorical questions... In fact, people who know Gu Beichen know that it is because Shen Chu came back. Jian Mo drank ginger tea silently and pretended not to know. Gu Beichen looked at her fiercely, but... She was half drunk and her stomach was uncomfortable again. "Jane Mo," Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, "what do you want?" "Huh?" Jane Mo lifted her eyes and looked at him innocently with beautiful eyes. Gu Beichen sneered, "go back to lanze garden tonight." Jane Mo frowned, "I''m not because of this..." "Then why are you?" Gu Beichen continued to sneer. Jane Mo was silent, and the corners of her mouth hooked up her self mocking eyes and didn''t speak. What''s she gonna say? Because of money? Or because of the first night? Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and smiled coldly at his thin lips In due time, the vibration of the mobile phone came. He picked it up and looked at it. "I''m not free tonight." As soon as Luo Xiaomi listened, he immediately quit, "uncle, you don''t keep your word!" "Make it up next time..." Gu Beichen said, and without saying anything more, he hung up the phone, leaving Luo Xiaomi shouting at the other end of the phone. "You have something to do," Jane Mo fanned her eyes and looked at the food put down by Xiao Jing. "I''ll eat by myself later." "Then you still think I''ll feed you?" Gu Beichen said coldly. After looking at Jane Mo coldly, he turned and went out of the bedroom. The sound of "bang" came, as if the hammer had hit Jian Mo''s heart... She didn''t know Gu Beichen was angry. Wasn''t she considerate? Jane Mo pressed down what was pressing in her heart, got up and got out of bed to pull the meal Xiao Jing bought. After a hungry day, she really wanted to eat... Plus now she has no right to break her body, and she still has her mother to take care of. She smashed her mouth. Some of them were dry. Seeing that there was no water to drink around, she planned to pour a glass of water outside Seeing Gu Beichen coming out, Li Yunze handed her a glass of red wine. "Jane foam is under a lot of pressure. What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen and Yu Guang glanced at the drawing on the dining table, "it''s estimated that it''s about the comparison of the draft in the emperor''s club on Monday..." "Can''t you help her with her own business?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrow. "I heard that she designed well... Jinxi also liked it very much. Didn''t Su Jun leave the small concert hall to her?" Gu Beichen didn''t say anything. "The emperor doesn''t take nepotism." As soon as Li Yunze heard this, he immediately smiled and said contemptuously, "don''t go? That small company like Jianmo should not be able to participate in the comparison..." "..." Gu Beichen''s face turned black. "Xiao Jing really doesn''t want the rest of the year-end bonus... Big mouth!" Li Yunze took the cup, motioned, then took a shallow SIP and said, "what''s your plan to get people out?" He lowered his voice. "Anyway, I''ve been with you for two years. If you can''t go on, don''t be too stiff... People say it''s also the youngest two years." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes, his Obsidian like ink pupil was slightly deep, and his heart quickly slipped through an unknown complex tangled emotion Chapter 125 Jane Mo just opened the door and suddenly stopped. She pursed her lips and her mind was in a mess Gradually, a self mocking smile slipped across the corner of her mouth, and she subconsciously gently closed the door again, as if she hadn''t heard what was said outside. Leaning on the door panel, Jane Mo looked at the front with empty eyes, and her nose suddenly became sour "Decided?" Li Yunze asked with an eyebrow. Gu Beichen was silent, then looked up and poured all the wine in the cup into his mouth. The mellow and slightly astringent liquor slipped from the taste buds through the throat and burned the nerves... Have you decided? Mingming has decided... But why is Yunze uncertain when he asks? Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen and shook his head. "Don''t make it like others forced you..." he glanced coldly. "When I came, I heard Jinxi say that ah Chu asked her to see Shaochen." Gu Beichen suddenly frowned at the sword eyebrow, and the eagle''s eyes looked at Li Yunze sharply. "Shaochen is almost fine anyway," Li Yunze said. "Ah Chu has been back for several days. Shaochen is in Los Angeles. It''s impossible for them not to meet." "I don''t mean that..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deep. "Is it all good?" Li Yunze shrugged and put down his goblet. "Do you want to go to the hospital?" "No," Gu Beichen said. "I went. It''s inconvenient for them to talk. It''s embarrassing." Li Yunze''s evil spirit hooked the corner of his lips, then got up, and then looked at the direction of the bedroom. Although he could only see the corridor leading to the bedroom, he couldn''t even see the door. "If it''s decided, it''s a gift... It''s just the design of a club." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but after seeing Li Yunze leave, he turned and went to the bedroom. At the moment of opening the door, Jian Mo was a little flustered and went to get the food bought by Xiao Jing. However, because of flustered, she didn''t hold it firmly... Turned it over! "Teng" once, Jian Mo''s face turned red and looked at Gu Beichen as timidly as a child who had done something wrong. Gu Beichen was laughed angrily. "Fortunately, you can knock it over at will..." he joked and said calmly, "I haven''t eaten for a day. I''ll moisten it with some porridge." With that, Gu Beichen opened a lunch box filled with mushroom and chicken porridge and handed it to Jian Mo, then took the trash can and cleaned up the spilled food on the small table. Jane Mo was eating porridge. She couldn''t tell what it was like. She knew that she would be close to divorce after moving out this time, but she would still feel bad if she heard him say divorce. "Jian Mo......" Gu Beichen''s eyes suddenly became deep, deeply coagulating Jian mo. Jane Mo looked up and looked at him suspiciously. Gu Beichen''s thin lips moved and sighed, but his words were not what he wanted to say: "here I let Xiao Jing transfer to your name." Jane Mo was slightly stunned, and a smile came out of the corner of her mouth, "divorce gift?" She raised her eyebrows. Gu Beichen frowned at the moment. Mo Tong looked at Jian Mo and gradually became deep, "do you really want to divorce me?" He uttered a faint voice, with danger in his low voice. Jane Mo fanned her eyes, "how could it?" She raised her eyebrows. "I''m divorced from you. My comfortable days are gone!" "Aren''t you tired?" Gu Beichen picked his eyebrow and asked coldly. Jane Mo didn''t understand what he meant, "huh?" "Always pretending in front of me, Jane Mo, aren''t you tired?" Jane Mo frowned, then smiled and said, "what you want to get, you have to pay..." she grinned, "besides, my husband has a high appearance. I''m from the heart, not disguised. How can I be tired?" Gu Beichen snorted coldly and didn''t speak any more... This woman only had Zixiao in her heart. Her mood was never because of him! I was about to pick up a fast-food box from the food brought by Xiao Jing, and the phone rang Gu Beichen picked up the call from seeing Mo Shaochen, slightly tightened his eyebrows, picked it up and put it in his ear, "Shaochen?" "Do you have time in the evening?" Mo Shaochen asked calmly. "What''s up?" Mo Shaochen looked at Shen Chu who was talking to Li Jinxi. "Ah Chu and Jin Xi are here. Let''s have dinner together in the evening?" Gu Beichen subconsciously looked at Jian Mo, and just caught her flustered action of drooping her eyes. One side of thin lips slightly aroused an evil smile. He gently opened thin lips and said, "OK." "I made a reservation at senwell." Mo Shaochen said, "we have arrived. Just come directly." Gu Beichen answered and hung up the phone. After recuperation, Mo Shaochen''s injury has recovered. He has not been discharged from the hospital, but he is only for others to see. "I have something to do," Gu Beichen explained. "I won''t come tonight." "Yes." Jane answered. Gu Beichen leaned over, gently kissed her on the forehead, and asked with deep eyes, "Jane Mo, you say... Why can''t you be willful and insist that I stay with you?" His voice was low and dull. "After all, you''re not feeling well." Jane Mo pulled a smile and raised her eyes, "if I willfully want you to stay with me, will you stay?" Gu Beichen''s line of sight to Shang Jianmo, the ink pupil is deep and bottomless, "no..." These two words were against his heart, but he said them without changing his face. Jane Mo smiled more and more brightly, "isn''t that it?" Regardless of the residue of porridge on her mouth, she kissed Gu Beichen on the cheek, "husband... I''m not a child, not so pretentious." Gu Beichen hooked an evil radian on one side of his thin lip, got up, looked at Jian Mo with a slight droop of his eyes, turned and left At the moment Gu Beichen turned around, all the disguises of Jian Mo disintegrated in an instant, and even couldn''t support him to leave completely. Fortunately, Gu Beichen is not a person who likes to look back Night, in rainy days, also came very early. Unlike the silence of lanze garden, Runze garden, located in the business district, is obviously much more lively. Jian Mo stood on the terrace, looking at the lights of thousands of houses, and suddenly found that... She hasn''t enjoyed this sleepless city for two years. Jian Heng''s threat and Gu Beichen''s intention to divorce... These two things tear Jian Mo''s thoughts. When she is alone, she is like a wandering soul drowning in an inky night and can''t find an exit. The sweet bell interrupted Jane Mo''s thoughts. She silently took back her sight, turned into the bedroom, picked up the mobile phone on the bedside table, didn''t see who it was, so she picked it up and put it in her ear, "hello?" "Miss Jane, I''m from the cardiology department of Yashu Hospital..." an anxious female voice came over the phone. "Dr. Wang asked me to inform you to come to the hospital and sigh. Ms. Su''s heart stopped beating intermittently and has been pushed into the operating room." Jane Mo''s eyes widened in an instant. At that moment, she forgot her reaction. "Hello... Hello... Miss Jane, are you listening?" The nurse''s voice came anxiously, "hello?" Jane Mo suddenly woke up, "I''ll come right away..." her breath has solidified, and all the emotions of sad spring and autumn have been replaced by fear. Jane Mo grabbed the car key and bag and went out of the door. She even forgot to change her shoes Chapter 126 The car shuttles wildly in the rainy night. The roaring engine is completely out of proportion to the cheap shell. "I''ll go... Why does the engine of that car sound like Ferrari FXX?" Shouted a man driving a convertible cross-country. "You think too much? Can a rotten modern be the engine of FXX?" The man sitting on one side looked contemptuously at the man driving, "Mom, can you drive faster? The car has become a boat." The man driving glanced sideways at the person on the side, "it''s not that you have to get wet, sad spring and autumn. I can''t stand it now..." With that, the man has increased his horsepower and chased the direction of Jian Mo''s car... But the more he chased, the more confused the two people on the car. How can they say that this car is also the king of speed, but they didn''t catch up with the broken Hyundai in ten minutes? "I''ll pull it. The horsepower of this car is definitely the top in the world..." the driver shook his head and sighed, "tut Tut, this is the first time I''ve seen such low-key luxury." Jane Mo galloped all the way to the hospital in the rain. She didn''t know that she was chased by a convertible cross-country with a market value of more than 7 million and didn''t catch up all the way. A "squeak" came. After Jane Mo parked the car smoothly in the parking space, she hurried out of the car and ran to the operating floor "Hello, I''m Sumer''s daughter. How''s my mother?" Jane Mo wiped the beads of sweat or rain on her forehead and asked. "Still in the operating room..." the nurse said and took out a list. "Please sign this." Jane Mo glanced roughly, then quickly signed and ran to the operating room The light of "in operation" was still on, and Jane Mo looked at it with a bit of shortness of breath. I don''t know how long it took. Jane Mo just felt her feet were cold... She looked down and found that she was wearing home slippers. The corners of her mouth made a mockery of herself. Jian Mo sat in the waiting chair weakly and looked at the closed door of the operating room with her heart. Gradually, her mouth closed together The rain outside gradually decreased, and the drizzle became hazy under the light. The soft sound of piano music came from senwell western restaurant, which gradually eased people''s nervous mood. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, his slender and powerful fingers grabbed the goblet and shook slightly, "don''t talk about business..." his thin lips opened gently, and the eagle''s eyes looked at Shen Chu opposite and fell on Li Jinxi next to her. "The emperor hasn''t planned to enter the entertainment industry yet." Li Jinxi rolled her eyes. "You can''t touch the light of your emperor..." she said, looking helplessly at Shen Chu. "No wonder ah Chu said that you have principles and hate nepotism most." Shen Chu stroked his soft straight hair, and his beautiful face was particularly quiet and Xian under the soft light. "I once wanted to win a design of the emperor, and Beichen didn''t play favoritism." She raised her eyebrows and eyes angrily. In my mind, I thought that Jian Mo''s woman tried her best to please in order to participate in the competition. Gu Beichen couldn''t help but thin lips, gently hooked the radian of evil, then glanced at Shen Chu lightly and said, "you don''t need me to be selfish..." The flirting words sounded ambiguous. Li Jinxi immediately joked, "sure enough, beauty is in the eyes of lovers... Anyway, no matter how ah Chu drops, it''s good in your Gu Beichen''s eyes." Gu Beichen refused to comment. He just looked at Mo Shaochen and said, "you haven''t fully recovered. Drink less wine." Mo Shaochen could only put down the glass he had just picked up. He shook his head reluctantly, then looked at Shen Chu and asked, "what are your plans for coming back this time?" "Haven''t thought about it yet..." Shen Chu said, "I haven''t come back for five years. I''m not used to it. Let''s adapt to it for a while." "Are you going back to JK?" Mo Shaochen asked casually. At the right time, Gu Beichen picked up the goblet and put it on the edge of his thin lips. While slightly lifting the goblet and sipping, the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly and glanced at Shen Chu opposite his eyes. "Shaochen, you really flatter me..." Shen Chu shrugged with a self deprecating smile. "Don''t mention this," she changed the topic. "You haven''t said why you''re so careless? I heard Jinxi say that the accident was very serious." Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes slightly and opened his mouth lightly: "it''s normal to have one or two accidents as a lawyer, especially criminal defense." He said lightly, "fortunately, I escaped." Shen Chu frowned, "didn''t you catch anyone?" "There is no direct evidence..." Gu Beichen said, "but sooner or later, I will not let him go!" Then he looked at Shen Chu with a deep sight. Shen Chu frowned slightly and looked up at Beichen''s line of sight. He suddenly "cluttered" in his heart. He always felt that this eye had a deep meaning. The light sound of "Di" came. Gu Beichen''s mobile phone on the desktop lit up the screen. He subconsciously took it, crossed the screen and opened the text message... At the moment of seeing the sender, he was suddenly lost in his heart. After replying to the instruction, Gu Beichen looked at the mobile phone with some thoughts, and didn''t notice that the sight of the three people fell on him. "What''s the matter, Beichen?" Shen Chu made a sound, fanned his eyes and looked at him suspiciously. Gu Beichen calmly converged his eyes. "It''s all right. Xiao Jing reminded me of the things to deal with tomorrow morning." Li Jinxi was very nervous. She rolled her eyes discontentedly. "I''m not allowed to talk about work. I''m busy with work..." she said and looked at Shen Chu. "Ah Chu, you don''t care about Beichen. It''s too bullying." Shen Chu smiled and didn''t know whether it was a joke or how to say, "now I have no right to manage..." A faint sentence suddenly condensed the surrounding air... Everyone knows what her words mean. After all, Gu Beichen is a man with a wife now, no matter whether the wife is popular or not! With the passage of time, the hospital became more and more dignified, and the corridor outside the operation was particularly silent, just like dead silence. The light of "operation" went out. At the same time, Jian Mo stood up and walked forward The door of the operating room was opened and Dr. Wang came out slightly tired. "Dr. Wang, how''s my mother?" Jane Mo asked, and saw the nurse push Su Mo out with the surgical cap. She came forward and twisted her heart and shouted, "Mom, mom..." "Little Jane..." Dr. Wang breathed a little dignified and shouted at the nervous Jane Mo, then motioned the nurse to push Su Mo to the ward, and then said to Jane Mo, "today, Ms. Su has had intermittent cardiac shock several times in a row, and the last time is electric shock to recover..." Jane Mo swallowed hard, "Dr. Wang, just say what you have to say..." she clenched her hand, as strong as two years ago. Dr. Wang twisted his eyebrows, endured it, and said to the end, "after electric shock cardiac resuscitation, your mother''s other internal organs failed in varying degrees due to insufficient blood supply to the heart..." he secretly bit his teeth, "that is to say... Your mother''s time may not be long!" "No, no..." after listening to this, Jane Mo immediately widened her eyes, and her pupils expanded rapidly. "You clearly said that as long as you have a suitable heart, mom will be fine... Dr. Wang, your joke is not funny at all?" Chapter 127 Dr. Wang looked at Jian Mo with concern, but he could only say: "now, unless we find a suitable heart transplant as soon as possible, there may be a glimmer of hope..." After a slight pause, Dr. Wang sighed and said, "but I still say that. The success rate is too low. Besides, now there are different degrees of failure of other organs, I suggest... Conservative treatment." Jane Mo''s eyes turned red in an instant. "Conservative treatment... Is it to let her mother wait to die?" She growled, tears spilled out of her eyes in an instant. Dr. Wang sighed, and his voice became dignified. "I can''t find a suitable heart source. The only thing I can do is conservative treatment..." his voice became more and more helpless and comforted again, "but, little Jane, this is a bottomless hole. You''re not satisfied at all." Jane Mo closed her eyes and squeezed out the tears in her eyes... When she opened them again, she wiped the tears on her cheeks and said firmly, "I want my mother to live!" The short six words also firmly expressed her decision again. Dr. Wang sighed deeply, nodded, and didn''t advise any more. For two years, every time Sumer encounters a crisis, he will persuade him once... Although he knows that this young but persistent girl will not give up. People say that no matter you are rich or poor, you can''t connect with the hospital... Otherwise, it''s not just the family that breaks down, but sometimes the exhaustion of people''s will. Jane Mo lies on the side of Sumer''s hospital bed, holding her dry and lusterless hand in her hands. Her eyes are staring out of the window... The rain has stopped, but the wet cooling in the air has not dispersed. Mom... Don''t leave me, don''t leave me Jane Mo closed her eyes and the corners of her mouth trembled slightly. Even her hand holding Sumer gradually used force. She doesn''t know if she has any reason to stick to it if her mother leaves... This is her last persistence and belief. The pleasant mobile phone ring broke the quiet ward. Jane Mo quickly took out her mobile phone and picked it up. For fear of disturbing Su Mo, she hurried outside, picked it up and walked to the stairwell "Hello?" "Xiaomo, I can''t wait for three days. I want money tomorrow, tomorrow night!" On the phone, there was a hurried voice of Jane truss and a wailing voice. Jian Mo was stunned at first, and then he yelled like crazy: "Jian Chang, are you still not human?" She was angry. "Just now, just now... Mom turned around in the gate of hell again. If you still have a little humanity, you shouldn''t do this to me --" "Ah --" Jian Heng didn''t listen to Jian Mo talking at all, but a roar of pain broke his lungs came. He said hurriedly: "I don''t care about you. If I can''t see the money tomorrow night, I''ll go to Gu Beichen... Yes, I can also go to Su Junli... Jian Mo, if you don''t want to be exposed by the black boss slope two years ago, you can give me money!" Jane Mo was trembling with anger. She closed her eyes and leaned against the wall, clutching her mobile phone, "Jane truss, you''re not human -" "Yes, I''m not human!" Jian Chang''s voice became more and more urgent, "at eight o''clock tomorrow evening, I''ll wait for you in that alley..." The "beep beep" hang up sound came with an annoying frequency. It took Jane Mo a lot of effort not to throw her mobile phone out. Lying weakly against the wall, Jane Mo looked at the front with empty eyes I don''t know how long it took. When there were footsteps from top to bottom in the corridor, she suddenly woke up, hurried to pack up her mood and turned out of the stairwell. Su Jun walked down step by step, slightly hanging his head, and the slightly long bangs covered the dark part at the bottom of his eyes. "Pedal pedal pedal" followed the hurried footsteps, and soon caught up with Su Junli''s footsteps. "Su Jun came up and shouted away......". Su Jun looked at the pursuer without expression. After staring at him for a while, he said, "I have nothing to say to you..." he raised his eyebrows coldly. "Everyone has everyone''s freedom of choice, you have it, and so does his mother... If this is your choice, I respect you." The words fell, Su Junli coldly pulled back his arm, then turned and continued to walk downstairs "Jun Li?" Su Anyuan frowned and shouted. Su Junli didn''t pay attention to it, but he opened the door and went out There was a dignified breath in the quiet ward corridor. Su Jun looked up and saw that it was the cardiology department. He couldn''t help laughing at himself... When he arrived at the cardiology department, his heart was just depressed and about to suffocate. If there was an accident, even first aid was omitted. With self mockery, Su Jun left and walked in the direction of the elevator Suddenly, he stopped. Looking sideways, through the visiting window on the door of the ward, Su Junli just saw a figure standing there... His vision was deep, and then tightened his eyebrows. How was Jane Mo in the hospital? Thinking like this, Su Jun stepped forward and gently pushed open the door of the ward When Jian Mo heard the sound, she subconsciously turned her head and looked at Su Junli''s line of sight. "Why are you here?" "Why are you here?" The two voices sounded at the same time. They were slightly stunned, and then the corners of their mouths pulled a thin smile. "I came to see people..." Su Junli said lightly. He looked at Su Mo, who was sleeping on the eye bed. At a glance, he could see that her facial features were very similar to Jian mo. "she was..." he looked at Jian Mo suspiciously. Jane Mo pursed her lower lip and said, "my mother..." Although Su Junli guessed in his heart, he was slightly stunned when he heard Jane Mo say so, "aunt... Heart disease?" Jane Mo nodded astringently at the corner of her mouth and didn''t explain too much. Seeing that she didn''t want to talk more and her eyes were red, Su Jun naturally didn''t ask much about her gentlemanly demeanor. After a few words of concern, he said, "will the commencement ceremony on Sunday come?" Jane Mo smiled and nodded, "I''ll be there." Su Jun''s gentle and handsome face smiled, "are you going to stay here with the bed at night?" "I''m going back..." Jane Mo said. "Together?" "I''m driving..." Jane Mo sipped her lips, covered Su Mo again, and left the hospital with Su Junli. Su Junli noticed that Jian Mo was wearing home slippers on her feet and moved her mouth to say something. Finally, she held back when she saw Jian Mo''s lonely appearance and pretended not to see it. The two cars went out of the gate of the hospital together, but Su Junli suddenly stopped, looked at the turning direction of Jianmo car, frowned and looked to the other side... Shouldn''t lanzeyuan go this way? In doubt, Su Junli started the car again. I don''t know why, so he followed Jian Mo''s car Along the way, Jane Mo''s mind was full of Jane truss''s threat and Su Mo''s disease, and she didn''t notice that Su Junli had been following. Su Jun left Jian Mo''s car and entered the Runze garden, muttering, "have you lived here now?" Chapter 128 One night, Jane Mo didn''t sleep well, and the design drawing was even less in the mood to draw... Whether it was her mother''s illness or Jane truss''s threat, she was torn by the two hands that pulled her nerves. "Tut Tut, sister Mo...... are you trying your best to design the rhythm?" Looking at the dark circles on Jane Mo''s eyes at night, she shook her head. Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth without explanation. "Mo Mo," Mo Xiaoya came over and asked with concern, "how''s the painting?" Jane Mo shook her head, rubbed her temples and said, "I don''t have a clue yet!" Mo Xiaoya frowned. "There are three days left..." she sighed, "try your best!" Jian Mo nodded at the corners of her mouth, and then looked at the time, "I''ll find president Yu..." Mo Xiaoya nodded and looked at Jian Mo dragging her tired body away. She couldn''t help whispering, "something''s wrong with Mo Mo these days?" "It''s estimated that the pressure of the project is too great..." Xiang night said, "Alas, the emperor club is about president Yu recommending sister Mo to UCL." Jian Mo found Yu Ziyun. He was making coffee. When he saw her coming, he also made a cup for her. "Have you got a design idea?" Yu Ziyun asked. Jane Mo pursed her lower lip. "Mr. Yu, I''m not looking for you to design..." she clenched her hand as she spoke. "Huh?" Yu Ziyun said softly, rubbed the moustache on his chin and looked at Jian Mo suspiciously. Jane Mo drooped her eyes, clenched her hand again and said, "Mr. Yu, I want to advance my salary..." she can''t continue to take money with Gu Beichen. Now, the only way she can think of is this. Yu Ziyun was surprised, "how much?" He asked again. Jane Mo bit her lower lip. It was obviously hard to speak. She endured it for a while before she hung her eyes and said heavily, "one million..." Quiet, when Jane Mo said this, the whole office was surprisingly quiet. "Jane Mo, do you know how much money you can get in Xiangyu a year?" Yu Ziyun asked. Jian Mo raised his eyes, "if the design draft is good, the basic salary plus bonus and dividend will not exceed 200000..." "That means you have to eat or drink your salary in advance for five or six years?" Jane Mo drooped her eyes and laughed at herself. She felt that she was also difficult for others. Yu Ziyun saw that Jian Mo''s self-esteem had begun to disintegrate and said slowly, "I don''t ask you the purpose of the money... I can also advance it for you!" Jian Mo was surprised and suddenly looked up at Yu Ziyun. "However, there is no free lunch in this world..." Yu Ziyun looked like a business, "I value you and hope you can go to UCL for further study... But, Jian Mo, I have the conditions." Jian Mo didn''t ask, but looked at Yu Ziyun. "I want you to sign a long-term labor contract with the company..." Yu Ziyun picked up the coffee cup and sipped the coffee for Jian Mo for a while before saying, "the money you want to advance has exceeded the scope of your current contract cycle. I want you to increase the labor relationship for ten years on the existing contract period with the company." Jian Mo widened his eyes slightly. For their designers, the longer their seniority means the greater their value. Therefore, they rarely sign a contract with a company for more than three years. Originally, because of her mother''s illness, she had signed an exception with Xiangyu for five years. Now there are still three and a half years. If you add ten years "If you think it''s OK, I''ll have the contract signed for you and the check prepared for you." Yu Ziyun put down his coffee cup and said. Jane Mo clenched her hand tightly, her fingernails embedded in the palm, and she didn''t know the pain "You can think about it," Yu Ziyun shrugged. "Of course, according to your future value, the company will also increase the salary and commission relatively, which will not affect your own value." Jane Mo took a breath, "don''t think about it..." she bit her gum, "I sign!" Yu Ziyun didn''t expect that Jian Mo would promise so readily, but it was a good thing for him. Jian Mo''s design has its own unique style. As long as it is carved more, it will become a bright star in the architectural design industry in the future. With a million checks, Jane Mo stood in the alley, listening to the noise of cars coming and going on the road not far away, and her eyes gradually slipped with sadness. What exactly does she want to defend? Mingming has lost her first time dirty. Mingming knows that if she gives the money to Jian Heng this time, it will be a bottomless hole... But she still can''t face the things that night. She couldn''t imagine how she would deal with herself in the future if the filth of that night was exposed in front of Gu Beichen or Su Junli. Perhaps this is her ridiculous last dignity. There was a rapid sound of footsteps in the alley, and Jian Mo looked sideways at the place where the sound came... Jian Chang came striding over in broad legged pants and a sweater and a duck tongue hat. "Where''s the money?" Jane truss asked. Although he hid well, Jian Mo still saw the scar on his neck. She didn''t ask and was not in the mood to ask Jian Heng looked at Jian Mo with scarlet eyes and grabbed the check. "Sure enough, it''s easy for you to take a million now... It seems that Gu Beichen is really good for you." Jian Mo was disappointed to see that when she was a child, she would carry her all the way home and said she wanted to protect her brother all her life. "Jian Heng, this is my advance salary in exchange for a ten-year work contract..." she gritted her teeth, "I have nothing to do with Gu Beichen!" "It doesn''t matter. Are you afraid I''ll tell him what happened two years ago? And then get the money so quickly?" Jian Heng sneered coldly, put the check in his pocket and said, "Xiaomo, you say you have nothing to do with Gu Beichen. Who believes it?" "Jian Heng, don''t threaten me with your injury to me..." Jian Mo was shaking all over. "If you still have a little conscience!" She gnashed her teeth and squeezed out the gap between her teeth word by word. "Since then, you are not my brother, and I have nothing to do with you." "Don''t worry, I won''t tell anyone unless I have to." When Jane truss finished, the corners of her mouth were hooked, and her eyes looked at Jane Mo with a touch of gloomy and treacherous. Then she turned and left. Jane Mo dragged her heavy body as if filled with lead back to the moistening garden. She was powerless and pressed the code lock as if her soul had been evacuated... When the empty house opened the door, all the preset programs turned on. Jane Mo leaned against the door and didn''t move for a long time I don''t know how long it took before she got up with her tired body and walked in heavily step by step Suddenly, she stopped, looked at the messy layout on the table, and then walked over. There are still three days to compare the draft, but she is still here, grieving for the lost things Jian Mo sat down mechanically, took out a new drawing paper and took a pen... Looking at the huge club frame on the computer screen, her vision fell on the 18th floor. 18¡­¡­ Jane Mo looked at the number and became distracted. Suddenly, the corners of her mouth smiled and the inspiration suddenly slipped through her mind... It was just that such inspiration was full of despair under sadness. 18, represents the deepest position of hell Chapter 129 Late at night, even the Runze garden in downtown has fallen into silence... After the baptism of the rain, the humidity and cold in the air are washed clean. Under the soft colored glass light, Jane Mo sketched on the drawing paper with a drawing pen. There was still a sad mood on her face, but her eyes were firm. She must seize this opportunity, even if she can''t win in the end The night, even if it carries the unbearable sadness, will eventually pass. When the East shows the white belly of the fish and the dawn tears the gloom for days, a new day will come under the warm sunrise. "JK group has been involved in the storm of being acquired recently. According to people familiar with the matter, JK has been in an economic crisis since the beginning of last year due to the disconnection of its internal capital chain..." the capable voice of the female anchor came from the morning financial news. "It is revealed that the emperor group is bound to win JK group..." In the morning, office workers absorb the current news on the radio or in the breakfast shop "Our reporter photographed yesterday that imperial president Gu Beichen and JK Qianjin Shen Chu had dinner together, accompanied by legendary legal figures Mo Shaochen and Li Jinxi..." the anchor said, and a picture was cut out on the picture, just like a picture of four people standing together and smiling one after another outside senwell. "Tut Tut, Chen Shao, this is a woman who wants to buy JK and deal with JK at the same time?" "What do you know? It''s called money and women..." "Look at others. The red flag at home doesn''t fall, and the colored flag outside the home is floating... It''s really a model for men to do Gu Beichen." Several men were having breakfast in a breakfast shop while watching the TV news. Finally, what the restaurant cared about was not whether JK would be acquired, but Gu Beichen and Shen Chu. The greatest skill of the media is to look at pictures and talk. A picture can definitely make up many versions of stories for you... But no one knows how to catch the focus. It is said that the time when Shen Chu came back coincided with the time when Gu Beichen covered a woman''s departure from Feitian hotel that day This media doesn''t know why it is so powerful. It directly dug out that Shen Chu actually came back a day in advance. Well, it''s very likely that the woman at Feitian hotel that night was her. Then, someone found out that Gu Beichen and Shen Chu had an affair five years ago... It was not exposed, but everyone knew it. "Alas, Gu Beichen''s true love has appeared. What should Mrs. Gu do?" He shook his head and sighed to the evening, "I really broke my heart for something irrelevant?" "However, the woman left for no reason. Now JK has a problem, and the Emperor may be the largest acquirer. Won''t she come back because of this?" Sun Ke''s conjecture of his arms encircling his chest. Mo Xiaoya turned the drawing pen in her hand and said, "is this thing also a willing to fight and a willing to suffer... But Mrs. Gu is really poor." "I wonder if the emperor bought JK, will it be stranded because of Shen Chu?" Qiao Zirong just came in and gave Mo Xiaoya a design plan. "If so, the financial news in Los Angeles will explode." Men and women always pay different attention to the news. Women gossip, and men look at the root of the problem. Jian Mo listened to everyone''s comments and gradually fell into her own thoughts... I don''t know why, suddenly she also wanted to know if Gu Beichen would let go for Shen Chu if there was a real involvement between the emperor and JK. Gu Beichen is not a person who likes favoritism. You can see from Gu Ci that if you really let JK go for Shen Chu... Ha ha, many things are self-evident. However, it seems that it has nothing to do with her in the future "Hey, do you think?" Sun Ke suddenly took the newspaper and went up to Jane Mo, "Shen Chu''s eyes and Mo Mo seem to......" she also covered her nose with her hand. In a comparison, everyone had only one idea! "It''s really similar!" "Sister Mo, aren''t you JK''s lost daughter?" Asked Xiangwan, who was full of romantic novels and dog blood passages. "No..." Jian Mo looked at Xiang night seriously, and then said seriously, "in fact, I''m the president''s wife of the emperor!" "Sister Mo, you''ve used a stem too many times..." Xiang night shook his hand. "If you''re really Mrs. Gu, if you don''t take down the design this time, I''m sorry for the words'' Mrs. Gu '' Her words immediately aroused the laughter and noise of the people. Jian Mo shrugged, looked down irrefutably and began to draw the design drawings that she didn''t finish last night... She plans to get the 3D renderings out at the weekend and fight a solid battle on Monday. The sky in Los Angeles, which has been baptized by the rain, is blue without a cloud, and it is clear even on weekends. Due to the photos of Gu Beichen and Shen Chu having dinner together, the news of the weekend was still occupied by the emperor and JK... However, in such an environment, Jian Mo didn''t expect her to make headlines again. The opening of the Adrian concert hall, named after su Junli in English, naturally attracted a lot of media attention. When Jian Mo, as the main designer, showed up, he immediately turned the focus to another direction. "Miss Jane, is there a personal reason for you and Adrian that the design of ''Adrian Concert Hall'' falls in Xiangyu?" "Excuse me, Miss Jane, is it true that you and Adrian have a close personal relationship?" "Miss Jane, for some people call ''Adrian Concert Hall'', you are the main design, and there are hidden rules. Is that right?" Reporters threw out sharp topics one by one, and the scene gradually became a little chaotic because of questions... The sound of "click, click, click" pressing the camera is one after another. Jian Mo said calmly, "you can''t believe my personality, but if you doubt Su Junli, it''s an insult to him and his music..." she looked around at the reporters, "What do you want to write about me... I have no right to care. However, journalists are used to let people have the right to know the truth, not to look at pictures and talk, or unrealistic fantasies, which are only done by primary school students!" The reporter was stunned by Jian Mo''s cold voice. Su Jun, who had just arrived, stood outside the crowd and looked at Jian Mo with a warm smile "Adrian is here..." I don''t know who shouted. Suddenly, the reporters turned and walked in the direction of Su Jun''s departure. Su Junli ignored the reporter and just walked to Jianmo. Junya''s face overflowed with a gentle smile in the sun. "Jian Mo and I are good friends..." Su Junli said, looking at the media. "I don''t want to investigate the previous scandal, but I don''t want to see you question my vision while insulting the ability of a designer." After that, Su Junli nodded slightly to the media, then turned around and motioned Jian Mo to enter the concert hall together. A group of reporters were left there to circle the words of Jian Mo and Su Junli one after another. Only then did they find that the two people cursed without dirt and surrounded the media. Li Jinxi stood enchanting beside the car with her handbag. Looking at Li Yunze who sent her to one side, she said, "look, if you don''t start, someone will start... The foam is so beautiful that you won''t be taken by Junli if you don''t work hard." She also tilted her eyes provocatively. Li Yunze frowned slightly and looked coldly at the two goods twin sister, "don''t meddle in things you don''t understand!" Then he got on the bus and started to leave However, before leaving, he looked at the back of Jian Mo and Su Jun through the window. Chapter 130 Before Li Jinxi could react, Li Yunze''s car drove away with a whoosh "I mix it up blindly?" She murmured discontentedly, "I think you''re fit to be single all your life. Spend your life with your scalpels?" Li Jinxi looked at the tail of the car with dissatisfaction, and proudly stepped into the concert hall with seven points of thin high heels The commencement ceremony was very simple. The Su family came to the head of Su Zhenqi and Su''s family. Su Junli''s eldest brother Su Haoyuan was the representative. Li Jinxi attended as the boss of Su Junli''s signing company, and the rest were just a few friends in the circle. "I''ll be the host in the evening," said Li Jinxi, looking like a big sister. "Jun Li, Mo Mo, don''t miss it!" Su Jun Li frowned slightly. He didn''t like Li Jinxi''s game very much, but he couldn''t lose face. He could only nod and answer, "what about you?" He asked Jane mo. Jian Mo shrugged and looked helplessly at Li Jinxi, who had stared, and could only agree. Emperor group. Gu Beichen stood in front of the French window with both hands and pockets, overlooking Los Angeles. The eagle''s eyes were deep and bottomless The vibration of the "buzzing" of the mobile phone came. Gu Beichen calmly converged his eyes, took out the mobile phone, looked at the call, picked it up and put it in his ear, "Shaochen?" "What does your email mean?" Mo Shaochen asked, with dignity on Jun''s face. Gu Beichen''s eyes are familiar with it. "Literally, JK has reached this stage. Whether it''s because of the emperor or you and me, it''s inevitable." "If ah Chu..." Mo Shaochen suddenly asked with a wrung eyebrow, but halfway through the conversation, he didn''t go on. He just said, "I have no problem here." Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly cold, "you have no problem... That''s no problem." "Beichen, do you have concerns?" Mo Shaochen asked looking at the contents of the email. Gu Beichen was silent. After several seconds, he slowly said, "the emperor has come to this step... I don''t want to see a situation in my hand that grandpa doesn''t want to see." JK''s acquisition is imminent, and the 55th anniversary of the emperor is approaching... At this juncture, the second uncle wants to come back? Mo Shaochen didn''t speak. In the end, he just hung up after making a "um" sound. Gu Beichen just put down his cell phone and began to shake again. He looked at the call calmly. It was Li Yunze "Xiang Nan made an appointment to go to heaven night in the evening. Are you free?" Gu Beichen frowned, "did you live to the south?" He whispered. Li Yunze was silent and just said, "I''ve gone too far and can''t live with myself... I''m going to go to the military region to experience according to the road arranged by old Lin. today is a gathering of brothers and send him off." Gu Beichen''s eyebrows frowned more tightly. Since Lin Nannan planned to propose to Su Xiaoxiao and was stood up that day, the two childhood sweethearts seemed to suddenly go farther and farther... That''s good. They gave up the way they had been fighting with Lin and went back. "Nothing!" Gu Beichen gently lifted his thin lips. "Yes!" Li Yunze answered, "see you in the evening." As an international metropolis, how bright the night is, how many people want to sink into this realistic society for comfort. Paradise night is the largest entertainment city in Los Angeles. There are only games you can''t think of, and there are no games they can''t provide you... Naturally, the consumption here is amazing. Gu Beichen drove to heaven night. When he came to a traffic jam, he opened the window to breathe "Between Su Junli and Jian Mo, it''s confusing whether it''s true or false..." The sound of entertainment news broadcast came from outside. Gu Beichen subconsciously looked away when he heard Jian Mo, and saw Su Junli and Jian Mo standing shoulder to shoulder in front of the concert hall on the large screen of one side of the mall. After facing the reporter with the same indifference, they turned and entered the concert hall together. Slightly invisible light frowned, Gu Beichen coldly took back his sight and started the car to drive under the loose team, but... Eagle eyes didn''t know it was already dark. Li Jinxi took Su Junli and Jian Mo and just entered the paradise night, she saw Li Yunze. Her eyes lit up, "Yunze?" Li Yunze looked back at the three and asked, "just the three of you?" "No, there are a few friends..." Li Jinxi picked a good-looking phoenix eye and asked, "who are you? Do you want to be together?" "No." After Li Yunze looked at Jian Mo, his sight slipped past Su Junli. "Play by yourself... Wait for me." Then he turned and went to the exclusive box of the fourth young man in Los Angeles. When Li Yunze arrived, Lin Nan had drunk a little. The Dragon owl sat indifferently smoking and allowed him to drink, "boss long, don''t care?" The Dragon owl''s carved face was extremely cold. He got up slightly and twisted out the cigarette butts in the ashtray. He said coldly, "I''ve made a decision and still want to die... Whatever?" Li Yunze shrugged, "the North Star hasn''t arrived yet?" "I''ll be there in a minute..." the Dragon owl glanced at Lin Nanan, who was drinking. "If you don''t want to go, don''t go crazy and show us." Lin Nannan drank and his eyes were red. He said with a big tongue, "boss long, I feel bad..." he laughed at himself. "I work against my family for Su Xiaoxiao, and against my grandfather and father. I''d rather go abroad with her when I came out of the military school, but in the end? People are not rare... From beginning to end, I''m amorous!" Lin Nannan said, directly took a bottle, raised his head and began to blow... Li Yunze shook his head. Originally, he came to "practice" for Lin Nannan. Finally, he watched him drink there alone... Li Yunze looked at the time. He had been here for more than half an hour, and Gu Beichen hadn''t arrived yet. "I''ll call Beichen..." Li Yunze said. It''s no way to drink like this to the south. Among the four people, he listens to Beichen most, so he has to persuade him. Gu Beichen just stepped into heaven night. Li Yunze''s phone came. After he just said "it''s at the door", the man walked upstairs with one hand and a pocket However, when the talent stepped up, he saw a familiar figure and people pulling into the elevator. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and followed him with big steps. After looking at the floor where the elevator stopped, he entered the elevator and went to that floor. With a "Ding" sound, the elevator arrived. At the moment when the elevator door opened, Gu Beichen had walked out... But there was no wipe on the long corridor. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly restrained. Because of the angle, he didn''t see whether the man was Shen Chu, but his back was very similar. Take a step to the corridor on one side. Li Yunze and them are on the upper floor. Gu Beichen doesn''t take the elevator. He plans to go up the stairs while looking for a circle "Don''t move..." a soft voice came from the corridor, with a touch of helplessness. "Jane Mo, how can I do if you move again? Dishonesty..." Gu Beichen''s steps suddenly stopped. Listening to the helpless voice, his handsome face was cold, and his eagle eyes looked through the corridor window Su Jun left his hand and held Jian Mo''s shoulder blade, and his face was close to he Chapter 131 With a bang, Gu Beichen pushed the door open, startled Su Junli and Jian Mo in the corridor to separate instantly, and then his head couldn''t turn around to look at him Gu Beichen sneered coldly, "do you need me to avoid it?" He asked softly with his thin lips. Jane Mo pursed her lips and didn''t do anything, but now she felt that she had done something wrong and was caught, "I..." "Chen Shao has appeared. How to avoid it?" Su Jun left and spoke calmly. There was not too much expression on Jun''s face, but there was a shallow irony in his gentle voice. Jian Mo twitched uncontrollably at the corners of her mouth, but she couldn''t help praising Su Junli''s momentum... Just, Gu Beichen is still her husband now, and the necessary explanation is still needed. "My eyelashes are in my eyes and I can''t get out..." Jane Mo said. "Junli was just blowing me." "Hum!" Gu Beichen said coldly. When he thought of the news he saw when he came, he was more blocked. "Blow your eyelashes and need to go to the corridor?" Jane Mo was silent, because she really didn''t need Just now, Li Jinxi said that Shen Chu was coming too. For a moment, she stung her nerves and hurriedly rubbed her eyes under the cover of panic. Who knows that her eyelashes were rubbed into her eyes. Afraid of being seen flustered, Jian Mo hurried out of the box, but she was seen by Su Junli, who was familiar with people''s Psychology She sadly hid in the corridor, and then there was the scene just now! Jian Mo didn''t speak. Su Junli looked at her and lowered his eyes slightly. Then his eyes fell on Gu Beichen''s frozen face and frowned secretly... He is a man. He can see whether a man is just possessive or has other feelings for a woman. Gu Beichen told Jian mo... I''m afraid it''s not what the outside world said? "Whatever you think..." Jane Mo turned aside and simply didn''t explain. She just muttered, "you can expose the scandal casually in three or two days. I can''t even enter the corridor!" Her voice was as low as a mosquito''s hum, but Su Jun was close to her and still heard... A thin smile was put on the corner of his mouth, which was astringent and funny. Jane Mo is afraid to fall in love with Gu Beichen? The obvious vinegar smell in her voice was so strong that it was about to suffocate him Gu Beichen didn''t hear what Jian Mo said. He just looked at Su Jun leaving his eyes and looked at Jian Mo smiling there. He was even more angry "You and I go upstairs!" After Gu Beichen spoke indifferently, he pulled Jian Mo''s wrist and began to walk upstairs. "Chen Shao, I''m afraid it''s inappropriate?" Su Junli deliberately said, "after all, today I started a party in the concert hall. She is my chief designer." Gu Beichen looked at Su Junli coldly, "why, is it appropriate for me to let my wife be with you?" Su Jun picked his eyebrow, "Oh? So... Chen Shao still knows that Mo Mo is your wife?" Gu Beichen immediately frowned at the sword eyebrow, and the eagle''s eyes coldly shot two horrified lights, as if to lingchi Su Jun away, "San Shao seems very angry?" He opened his mouth coldly, and his words spilled over his thin lips. Su Junli smiled, "how could it?" He raised his eyebrows and said with some meaning, "just, no matter how high or stormy people are, there will be times when they can''t see clearly... I advise Chen to say less. If some things are lost, they may never be found again." "Really?" Gu Beichen sneered, "I never need to find what Gu Beichen wants!" Domineering words and arrogant momentum enveloped him, and instantly condensed the surrounding air. Jane Mo doesn''t know what happened to Su Jun tonight. It seems that what she said to Gu Beichen means something, but she doesn''t know what he wants to express In fact, Li Jinxi called Shen Chu to come over. She didn''t want to stay... She left with Gu Beichen now, but she also gave herself a reason. Gu Beichen converged his eyes in confrontation with Su Junli, coldly pulled Jian Mo and went upstairs. Su Jun Li raised his eyes and looked back at Shang Jian Mo with guilty eyes. He just smiled and shook his head, indicating that it was okay However, when Jian Mo turned his eyes back, there was a helpless bitterness in the bottom of his eyes. It''s too late to learn to love, but he fell into such a situation... Falling in love with married her, morality does not allow him to continue, but unfortunately, his heart sinks every time he sees her. Gu Beichen, look at her... Once you lose her, I won''t give you a chance to find it back! Su Junli turned slowly, but didn''t go to the floor. Instead, he walked down the stairs step by step. He took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to Li Jinxi, saying that he and Jian Mo left first. Gu Beichen opened the corridor door and went out. His legs were long and his steps were big. Jian Mo could only trot along, "ah Chen, are you angry?" She asked deliberately. "Hum!" Gu Beichen snorted coldly. Jane Mo was bored. Seeing Gu Beichen holding her in the direction of the box of the last Los Angeles four young people''s party, she couldn''t help asking, "are they Li Yunze?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer. Jane Mo was sure, so she became unscrupulous, "husband, you look jealous..." In due time, Gu Beichen had opened the door of the box. Without looking at the people inside, Jian Mo continued: "husband, if you are jealous, tell me straight... I won''t laugh at you!" Jian Mo''s words just fell, and immediately felt that the atmosphere in the box seemed to freeze Subconsciously, she first looked at the taut facial lines of Gu Beichen, and then looked along her line of sight... The stunned eyes of Shang Shenchu. Jane Mo suddenly "clattered" in her heart, and her pupils expanded instantly Shouldn''t Shen Chu be downstairs? Why are you here? Li Yunze and the Dragon owl looked at each other and felt that things were too coincidental to hide. Just after Li Yunze hung up Beichen, he received a call from Li Jinxi saying that Shen Chu seemed to have some trouble... After he went down to find it, he simply brought people up, but who knew Beichen would bring Jian Mo over. The atmosphere was a little awkward. Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo incredulously, and then asked Gu Beichen with puzzled eyes... Even her lips trembled with amazement. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but let go of Jian Mo''s wrist. Jane Mo looked down, and her arm was still in the position she had just been captured... The feeling of sudden emptiness in her wrist made her heart empty at once. Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo again. She never thought that Gu Beichen''s wife was her... She was the rumored "Mrs. Gu"? I still remember Jinxi''s best friend lying down for her, Beichen and Jianmo... But no one saw their relationship. Jane Mo swallowed it secretly. When she raised her eyes, she had gathered all the lost and empty emotions. She just raised her eyebrows and said, "you play, I have my own game... Well, I won''t disturb you." With that, she looked at Gu Beichen indifferently, shrugged her shoulders, and then walked out generously. From speaking to turning away, Jane Mo''s back is straight, so people can''t see a trace of her wrong mood However, no one knows... At the moment of turning around, her heart seemed to be cut hard, and she could hardly hold up the pain! Chapter 132 The atmosphere in the box was a little stiff. Jian Mo didn''t stop Gu Beichen when she left. Instead, Li Yunze''s lips moved back and forth. She wanted to call her, but she resisted in the end Lin Nannan put down the cup in a dazed way. His mind was muddy and couldn''t think. He just looked at Jian Mo''s back and shouted with his tongue: "three... Three sister-in-law... Three sister-in-law..." "..." Li Yunze looked at Lin Nanan with some resentment and thought to himself: just drink your wine now. Shen Chu got up with a self deprecating smile, "it seems... It''s me who should go!" With that, she looked at Gu Beichen. Her good-looking eyes were full of sadness. She stepped out. Jane Mo turned around and had gathered all her emotions. She smiled indifferently and said, "don''t..." she raised her eyebrows and said, "I really have a situation. Jinxi celebrates Junli." With that, she looked at Gu Beichen, whose face was tense because of the intimate sentence "Jun Li", and said, "I won''t bother you... Well, have a good night with the beautiful woman." Jane Mo gave Gu Beichen the most common smile in two years, then nodded generously with Shen Chu and closed the box door Laugh, stiff in the face! Jane Mo thinks she''s just looking for cheap... Why should she make others comfortable when she''s unhappy? She should directly lead Shen Chu to Li Jinxi. They are all from Jinxi Bureau, aren''t they? Then she played her music and asked Shen Chu, the "little three", to add blocking! Jane Mo laughed at herself, looked at the box door that had been closed by herself, took a deep breath... Dragged her heavy body to the elevator. Powerlessly leaning against the elevator wall, Jane Mo looked at the falling numbers with dull eyes, and her nose was sore... She wanted to retain her last dignity and not be seen that her heart had fallen into his world It turns out that camouflage is not as casual as it has been for two years. In fact, it is a thing that makes my heart very tired. The atmosphere in the box was dignified as if the air had condensed. Shen Chu stood in place, pursed his lips, looked at Gu Beichen with reddish eyes and asked, "Jian Mo is the legendary ''Mrs. Gu''?" She asked again with certainty. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at Shen Chu with a slight squint, and his thin lips answered, "HMM." Shen Chu smiled with a sarcastic smile, "that time Jinxi picked me up, and she was there!" She gritted her teeth. Gu Beichen didn''t speak "Gu Beichen, what do you think of me as Shen Chu?" Shen Chu finally roared uncontrollably, "I''m just like a fool... Just when everyone is talking about me and you, but where is she watching coldly!" "Ah Chu..." Li Yunze said, "Beichen and Jian Mo are..." "What is it?" Shen Chu interrupted Li Yunze, "what''s the nature of going south?" She smiled sharply. "Who did you admit to the south? Even if he was so drunk, he still knew to call Jian mo ''third sister-in-law''..." She sternly questioned, as if she didn''t know. In fact, Lin Nannan and Jian Mo just met a few times recently "Jane Mo is my wife now. What''s wrong with calling the third sister-in-law to the south?" Gu Beichen was a little agitated, and his mind was completely calm. It didn''t matter, which made him dissatisfied. Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen, mockingly hooked the corners of his lips, and a thin layer of water mist filled the bottom of his eyes, "yes... Jane Mo is your wife, so what am I now? A third party?" She roared, "Gu Beichen, isn''t it?" Gu Beichen''s sword eyebrows frowned, and his thin lips pursed together. "Shen Chu, how many times do you want me to say it?" He said coldly, "it''s you who said to leave, and it''s you who said to come back... I don''t care what feelings I have for Jane Mo, but she''s my legal wife now, isn''t she?" Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen and was disappointed. It seemed as if she had never known Gu Beichen. Her eyes were completely strange. "OK, ok... I know..." she smiled sadly. "You just retaliated me. You retaliated that I said to go... Right?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly heavy, and his eyes overflowed with anger, but he didn''t speak. Shen Chu couldn''t get Gu Beichen''s voice. "Ha ha" laughed at himself. "Gu Beichen, you''ll never understand," she looked at him disappointed, "why did I go..." After muttering to himself, Shen Chuhong turned with his eyes red, opened the door of the box and left The Dragon owl lit a cigarette, and Mo Tong was cold without a trace of emotion. Li Yunze sighed and shook his head. Lying on the sofa, he felt that women were trouble... Chaos! "Ha ha..." Lin Nan smiled with a big tongue and drunk eyes, "third brother... I, I am a... A su Xiaodu... I can''t make it... You, you two... Ha ha..." Then he picked up a bottle of wine and poured two cups. "Third brother," he grabbed the cup and got up, "I... I respect you!" Gu Beichen looked back at Lin Nannan and frowned slightly. He came forward and grabbed the cup in his hand, "look what you look like?" "Whatever he looks like..." Lin Nan shook his hand, stared and said, "love... It''s a fucking fart!" His instantly repressed emotion burst out, "what is Su Xiaoxiao? What is Shen Chu?" Lin Nan''s eyes were scarlet. "Go if you want to go, come back if you want to... Do you think we are spare tires?" Drunk words pierced into Gu Beichen''s heart like a thorn. His eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and his Obsidian eyes shot two shocking lights and looked at Lin Nannan Lin Nannan was already drunk. If he fell in peacetime, he would have been gray and honest to see Gu Beichen, but today, he bravely picked his chin and said, "am I wrong? Burp..." he continued after burping with wine, "I think the third sister-in-law is very good... Capable and good-looking. It''s mainly to follow the third brother''s lead..." "...." Li Yunze frowned and stood up to pull Lin south. Now Beichen looks like this. It''s obvious that some of them can''t carry clearly... It''s true that he never forgets Shen Chu, but I''m afraid he also has feelings for Jian mo. However, others can''t intervene in this emotional matter... Beichen is the one who always knows what he wants. Now it''s not good for anyone to fan aside. ¡­¡­ Jane Mo went back to Runze garden directly from heaven night... Looking at the empty house, her heart was empty. In the past, when I was in lanzeyuan, such a large villa didn''t feel empty, but now I feel empty and lonely in such an apartment. Night, dark blue makes people feel mysterious. The stars twinkled all over the sky. Through the tempered glass, Jane Mo sat on the carpet and looked up at the stars against the glass door... It was obviously a romantic thing, but she was sad and lonely at the moment. On the dining table, the computer constantly changes the design 3D renderings of the 18th floor of the emperor Club... Dark colors, bold innovation, and the bloody smell of the soul swallowed in the dark. The pleasant ringing of the mobile phone broke the silence in the apartment at the moment. Jian Mo slowly took back his sight. His neck had been tilted for a long time, and it was very sour She got up and went to the table, with inexplicable tension and expectation in her heart, but when she saw the caller ID, her eyes were full of loss and subconscious resistance Chapter 133 Endure, Jane Mo still answered the phone Chu Zixiao leaned on the car, looked at the stars all over the sky and said, "tomorrow is the day for the emperor''s club to compare manuscripts. Are you confident?" "You know?" Jane Mo said softly. Chu Zixiao drooped his eyes, "well, I know..." Know that you want to get this opportunity, know that you want to get the work specification after winning, and know more... You want to go to UCL for further study. "I have no bottom in my heart..." Jane Mo told the truth, "but it''s also an opportunity anyway." "Mo Mo, you will succeed..." Chu Zixiao''s voice is deep and makes people feel a little ethereal. Jane Mo frowned. She didn''t know whether he was encouraging or referring. She just felt a little hairy in her heart, "hope." Chu Zixiao''s mouth slightly touched the complicated emotion, "tomorrow..." he paused, turned to his mouth and said, "come on." "Well, thank you!" Jane Mo pursed her lips and said. Chu Zixiao mocked himself at the corners of his mouth. When... Were they embarrassed when they talked so mechanically? Silence, the two held their mobile phones like this. No one opened his mouth and continued to talk. They could feel each other''s breathing quietly. "That..." Jane Mo broke the silence. "I''ll go to have a rest first..." "Mo Mo," Chu Zixiao shouted, and then he opened his mouth, "I''ll wait for you." "Huh?" Jane Mo didn''t react for a moment. "Nothing..." Chu Zixiao didn''t explain, "good night!" "Good night..." Jane Mo instinctively replied, and then hung up the phone. Looking at the 3D rendering on the computer screen, Jian Mo always feels that Chu Zixiao''s phone is a little strange... She has a feeling that she wants to convey something to her, but she is unwilling to say it. Chu Zixiao didn''t appear in her world for many days after she broke up in Luoda that day Xu was disturbed by Shen Chu''s appearance these days, and Xu was so frightened by Jian Chang''s appearance that she almost forgot him! A first love who once loved so deeply, and even thought it would be painful in the past two years... She seemed to come out of that love inexplicably! Looking down at the mobile phone that was accidentally pressed on by herself, she accidentally pressed on ''Mr. G''... Jian Mo was subconsciously nervous. She was clearly going to press the dialing interface. Who knows that she dialed out the phone Jane Mo hurriedly cut off the phone, and the prayer signal hasn''t been sent yet. However, before two seconds, she suddenly looked forward to it... Looking forward to Gu Beichen''s coming back. The cell phone ring came a minute later, and Jian Mo''s heart jumped up subconsciously. Secretly swallowed and looked at the mobile phone. It showed that it was "Mr. g". Jane Mo''s heart suddenly mentioned to her throat She took it up and put it in her ear. Before she spoke, a low and magnetic voice came from the opposite side, "why? Don''t you sleep yet?" "Already asleep..." Jane Mo lied. Gu Beichen hummed coldly, "sleepwalking, call me?" "When did I call you?" Jane Mo felt uncomfortable when she heard Gu Beichen''s cold voice, and her tone was higher, so she retorted. Gu Beichen was silent and just said, "Jane Mo, next, do you say... The mobile phone is in bed and rolled over?" "..." Jane Mo was silent, "I pressed it unintentionally." Gu Beichen heard that Jian Mo didn''t lie this time, but he was unhappy just because he heard it The "beep beep" hang up sound came from the mobile phone. Jian Mo fanned his eyes in amazement. Without reaction, Gu Beichen hung up the phone without saying anything? "Dropped the line?" Jian Mo murmured, "or... Did Shen Chu break his cell phone directly?" Either way, Jane felt like a fool With a self mocking smile, Jane checked the design drawing again, turned off the computer and went to wash and sleep after confirming that it was correct What she should think of now is not the outcome that has been set long ago, but the opportunity to fight with all her strength... Whether for her mother or herself. The next day, the weather in Los Angeles was still very good, which made people suddenly feel that they went back to summer from autumn. The comparison started at 10:00 in the morning. Jian Mo went to the company first, and then went to the headquarters building of emperor group with the encouragement of everyone in the evening. "Sister Mo, obviously I have nothing to do. Why am I so nervous?" Sitting in the elevator leading to the conference room, I took a deep breath in the evening for several times, but there was no way to calm the tension. "Sister Mo, are you nervous?" Jane Mo said she was not nervous. It was a lie, but she had no way back President Yu advanced her one million salary, her mother''s body, and even went back to divorce Gu Beichen... Everything will weigh on her future life. The sound of "Ding" came, and Xiang night and Jian Mo subconsciously wanted to go out... But when they saw that the number stayed on the fifth floor, they looked at each other and felt that they were too nervous. A "crash" sound followed, the elevator door opened, and the two subconsciously looked at the door Gu Beichen stood there with his pocket in one hand, followed by Susan and Xiao Jing, and two people in their 40s who looked like supervisors. Jane Mo didn''t expect to meet Gu Beichen as soon as she came in. Xiang night was a cry with wide eyes, "Chen Shao?" As soon as the voice fell, she hurriedly covered her mouth and felt very impolite. Gu Beichen didn''t move. His eyes fell on Jian Mo''s face so indifferently that people couldn''t see what emotion he was holding. Susan and Xiao Jing didn''t speak, but a supervisor behind them said, "which department are you from? Don''t you know this is a special elevator?" Xiangwan shook his head and said subconsciously, "sorry, we''re here to compete... I don''t know this is a special elevator..." Jane Mo pursed her lips. "Sorry, we''ll change to another one." As she said this, she nodded and apologized as if she didn''t know Gu Beichen at all, and then went out. "Just take this one..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth coldly and then walked in. The elevator is very big. There is still a lot of space for seven people, but... The loose space seems to be under pressure. Xiang night clutched the computer bag in her hand, and her eyes kept wandering, but she didn''t know what to look at. She just felt that her heart was pressed by the sudden cold and dignified atmosphere and couldn''t breathe Gu Beichen and Jian Mo stood in front almost parallel. Neither of them looked at each other, and even Yu Guang was too lazy to give one. Susan and Xiao Jing secretly exchanged eyes with each other. It seemed that there was something unusual between them... Even if they pretended not to know each other, it wouldn''t be like this. However, the two supervisors who followed were somewhat surprised. Gu Beichen would agree that the two people would take the same trip... According to the president''s temper, shouldn''t he directly ask the other company and then issue the order of "being isolated from the emperor forever"? The space where each other''s breathing was clear and audible was broken when the "Ding" came, and the first one in the evening breathed a sigh of relief. I''ve never been glad that the elevator could arrive so quickly. When the elevator door opened, Jian Mo smiled politely at Gu Beichen professionally with the attitude of a stranger and people looking for a cooperative company, "thank you, general manager gu!" The words fell, and Jane Mo came out of the elevator with a generous attitude towards the evening. From beginning to end, she didn''t have any more emotion. Chapter 134 After getting out of the elevator at night, Xiang looked at it subconsciously, pulled an ugly smile from the corners of his mouth, and then hurried to the conference room with Jian Mo''s footsteps How did she just feel that Gu Beichen''s face was as black as the bottom of the pot? Xiang night frowned and looked puzzled, "sister Mo, you were too unfamiliar with Chen Shao just now?" Anyway, we had dinner together? What''s more... What did Gu Beichen say to sister Mo that we should have a good talk in the evening? How should not be so strange! "I don''t want the final success to make people say that I rely on hidden rules!" Jane Mo is talking nonsense. As soon as I listened to it, I immediately felt very reasonable and nodded, "sister Mo, wise!" She slightly picked her chin. "Why don''t we go back and win, and think it''s a drain?" Jian Mo looked at the innocent and deceptive night and sighed in her heart... People, it''s better to live simply. Gu Beichen took the elevator to the top floor office. From beginning to end, his handsome face was so indifferent that people couldn''t see through his thoughts. The two executives are specially responsible for the JK acquisition. Because there are some problems in the acquisition, Gu Beichen and the two executives held a meeting in the office all morning. "The next thing you need to do is communicate with Mo Shaochen..." Gu Beichen said calmly, "speed up your pace without touching the regulations on compulsory M & A." "OK." The two executives got up after answering, "president, there''s nothing else... We''ll be busy first." Gu Beichen nodded slightly and ignored the departure of the two executives. He just pressed the insider, "Susan, bring in the quarterly statements of European and American companies." "Yes." Susan answered skillfully, and soon there was a knock on the door. "Come in..." Susan pushed the door in. "Chen Shao." She put the folder on Gu Beichen''s left hand side. "It''s already noon. Do you need to go to the canteen to bring you food?" Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at the time. As expected, it was past twelve o''clock. "How''s the comparison going?" Susan has been with Gu Beichen for several years. She cares less about the manuscript than Gu Beichen because Jane Mo also participated. "The manuscript on the 18th floor will be held from 4:00 to 5:00 in the afternoon." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Jian Mo looked at Susan and asked coldly, "did I ask which floor?" Susan shook her head, "no..." she was not sure what was under the "interaction" between Beichen and Jian Mo in the morning, so she said, "the 18th floor is the top priority of the club design. I think chenshao only cares about the key points." Gu Beichen glanced at Susan indifferently, then took the report, looked at it for two eyes and said indifferently, "go down and eat." Susan twitched uncontrollably in the corner of her mouth. She scolded Gu Beichen and answered at the same time. Because the comparison will be carried out for one day, and there is only one hour at noon, the meal time will continue... Therefore, the emperor arranged lunch for the people who compared the draft. Susan and Xiao Jing went downstairs to eat with Gu Beichen. Although Gu Beichen didn''t go down to eat for the first time, today''s purpose seems a little too obvious "Chen Shao and Miss Jane quarreled again?" Susan whispered with her lips closed. Xiao Jing glanced sideways at her. "Do you think Miss Jane will quarrel with Chen Shao?" "No..." Susan said. Jane Mo''s temper is only hypocritical and soft, and it''s impossible to quarrel with Chen Shao. "But it''s obvious that there''s something wrong between them in the morning?" Xiao Jing looked at Susan. They had a tacit understanding. They slowed down for two steps. They heard him pick his eyebrow and say, "just got the news... Chen Shao was in heaven night yesterday, and Miss Jane was there!" Susan frowned and didn''t think there was any direct conflict between the two... After all, the outside world didn''t know about the relationship between the two people, and each had its own life circle. Xiao Jing looked at the proud figure of Beichen Wei''an, lowered his voice and said, "the problem is that Shen Chu is also there!" "..." Susan''s eyes widened in amazement. "I see?" She asked hurriedly, even forgetting to keep her voice down. Xiao Jing subconsciously looked at Gu Beichen and saw him look back. His eyes were as cold as a knife. The two of them were so frightened that they hurried forward. When they entered the staff restaurant, Xiao Jing nodded to Susan. Susan sighed and shook her head, indicating that the situation was a little bad! Emperor has five staff restaurants. Gu Beichen''s restaurant is usually from senior executives. Today, people who compare manuscripts also eat here No one was surprised that Gu Beichen ate here, but he slipped his eyes at night, just like watching a gorilla, "tut Tut, I didn''t expect that Chen Shao would also eat in the staff restaurant." It''s the place where Jane doesn''t have a good meal, and then she will continue to eat a bad one, no matter what kind of food she doesn''t eat Hearing this at night, he turned his mouth in disbelief. The two of them ate while talking nonsense, because they were going to compare the draft on the 18th floor in the afternoon, and their topic soon became a matter of comparing the draft... They were serious. Finally, they didn''t find Gu Beichen walking towards their table. Gu Beichen sat down. Xiao Jing looked at Jian mohou opposite his eyes and said, "Chen Shao, I''ll get some rice." "I''ll..." Susan said quickly. She didn''t want to be killed here. "President Gu also eats here?" Jane Mo said hello with a generous smile, then put down her chopsticks, "Gu always eats slowly, I won''t bother!" Then she got up and wanted to leave. Xiang evening was not in a state, but I thought that Jian Mo said in the morning that he didn''t want to be said that Gu Beichen drained water. He also hurried to say that he was full, let Gu Beichen use it slowly, and left with Jian mo Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently hooked a radian that seemed to be invisible. A pair of ink pupils were as deep as the sea. The surface was calm, but the undercurrent was turbulent. When Gu and Xiuzi knocked on the table for a while, they sat there with each other as soon as they came back. It''s like... Being deliberately ignored! The atmosphere of the restaurant is a little strange because of this scene. Some people speculate whether Xiangyu''s people have something to do with Gu Beichen. Others scold Jian Mo for being stupid. They don''t know how to seize the opportunity. "Chen Shao, have a meal..." Xiao Jing handed the chopsticks to Gu Beichen and looked at them with a pair of eyes, thinking how depressed Chen Shao must be at the moment. Being ignored... Or your own wife Xiao Jing tried hard to keep smiling, but he couldn''t help it... He almost had to hurt himself. "Deduct another 20% of the year-end bonus!" Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing and spoke coldly. "Ah?" Xiao Jing was stunned and asked, "why?" "Why not..." Gu Beichen said coldly and didn''t eat. He got up and walked outside the restaurant. "Chen Shao, is it really good to spread his anger to me like this?" Xiao Jing said with a bitter face. Susan smiled, raised her eyebrows and said, "you deserve to laugh at boss..." Xiao Jing shrugged his shoulders and said with a deep sigh, "people trapped in the strange circle of love, how can I redeem your soul?" "Really sour..." Susan couldn''t stand rolling her eyes. Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone when he got out of the restaurant. Without thinking about it, he dialed Jian Mo''s phone As soon as the phone was connected, he said coldly, "come up to my office!" Without giving Jane Mo an excuse to refuse, he said coldly, "I haven''t seen anyone in five minutes. Cancel Xiangyu comparison draft!" After that, he hung up the phone and the man had entered the elevato Chapter 135 Jane Mo couldn''t react. Listening to the "Dudu" hang up sound from her mobile phone, she subconsciously fanned her lower eyelashes, and the corners of her mouth twitched uncontrollably. "Sister mo..." Xiang night looked at Jane Mo curiously, "what''s the matter?" Jane Mo put down her mobile phone and secretly clenched her teeth. Without knowing it, she used her force to pinch the mobile phone. At night, I felt the strange smell overflowing from Jane Mo and became more and more curious. Jian Mo took a deep breath for several times, then calmed down slightly and pulled the corners of his mouth: "there''s still half an hour, free activity... Well, see you in the conference room." With that, she pretended to relax and got up. I turned my mouth to the night and didn''t feel wrong. I said "Oh" Jane Mo went to the elevator, looked at the number on the 79th floor, clenched her hand, and finally pressed it... Anyway, even if she met someone on the top floor at this time, it was Xiao Jing and Susan who knew her identity very well. "Ding" came a crisp sound, which was particularly abrupt in the empty and quiet floor. Jane Mo went out at the moment when the elevator door opened. This is her second time here... Last time she sent a fast food and "earned" 2 million! He walked to Gu Beichen''s office and knocked on the door. No one answered. Jane Mo left the corner of her mouth and pushed away. The big office was empty. Where did Gu Beichen shadow? Turn around and leave with a cold hiss "Are you especially glad I''m not here?" Suddenly, the voice came from one side, low and dark, with a trace of danger. Jian Mo was startled and subconsciously looked at the place where the voice came from... Gu Beichen saw a tea cup in his hand, eagle eyes looked at him deeply, and the ink pupil was deep and bottomless. "Really..." Jian Mo admitted without mind. "After all, Gu always really intends to make hidden rules on such an important day today?" She raised her eyebrows. "Of course, as a general manager who should be selfless to his eldest sister, if I have hidden rules, I don''t mind... Even feel honored." Gu Beichen expressed his dissatisfaction with Jian Mo''s mouthful of "President Gu". "Hidden rules?" Gu Beichen sneered, "do you deserve it?" He looked back coldly and turned into the office. Jane Mo secretly feigned against his back. When she was struggling to go or go in, a cold voice came from inside, "wait for me to invite you in?" Jane Mo sighed and went in after all "Shouldn''t you eat down there?" Jane Mo found a topic and asked. "I''m full of popularity." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and stopped talking, so she stood there. Gu Beichen''s eyes looked at her deeply. After waiting for a long time, there was no following. His eyes narrowed slightly and said coldly, "you have nothing to say?" There was a strange emotion overflow in the light voice. Jane Mo looks at Gu Beichen blankly. She doesn''t know what he means... She has some straight hair seen by Gu Beichen''s deep eyes, but she really doesn''t know what he wants? Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and was very angry... From last night''s phone call to today''s meeting, she was completely indifferent and indifferent to Shen Chu and his affairs. Even... People may still be thinking that they will finally get rid of the sea of suffering! "Jian Mo, comparing the draft results as a divorce gift..." Gu Beichen coagulated Jian Mo deeply and paused deliberately, trying to see something from her face. Unfortunately, he didn''t see too much emotion from Jian Mo''s face, "... How about it?" Jane was stunned, picked her eyebrows and said, "do you think I don''t want this gift, so we won''t divorce?" There was a teasing smile in her voice, which covered up the real sadness in her heart. This kind of simple foam is the most common in Gu Beichen in the past two years. It doesn''t matter. Everything can be... He''s never in his heart. "You don''t want a divorce?" Gu Beichen asked with an eyebrow, looking forward to it. Jane Mo smiled. "It seems... It''s not what I want or not." She shrugged and continued, "but I want to rely on my own strength..." after a slight meal, she smiled and said, "divorce doesn''t need gifts." When she said this, her mind was the phone number of Chu Zixiao last night... She couldn''t figure it out before, but Gu Beichen said that the comparison was a divorce gift. Hehe, it seems... Chu Zixiao knew last night. Will she be "hidden rules" in today''s comparison? Gu Beichen''s cold face was so indifferent that people couldn''t see what he was thinking at the moment. Jane Mo didn''t try to guess his mind. She just looked at the time. There were ten minutes before the end of the rest. "I have to go down..." "Jane Mo!" "Huh?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "Last night..." Gu Beichen said, suddenly stopped and frowned slightly. He wanted to explain, but he didn''t seem to understand what he wanted to explain or for what reason. After waiting for a few seconds, Jian Mo said, "I went back after Er and Jinxi broke up last night... If you want to ask Jun Li," she smiled and raised her eyebrows, so enchanting and charming, "he and I are friends for the time being... Well, I still have morality in marriage." When the words fell, Jian Mo looked at the time again and didn''t pay attention to Gu Beichen''s slightly heavy eyes. He said to himself, "I''ll go down first... When will you talk about divorce? Anyway, I''ll just sign." Gu Beichen hissed coldly and didn''t speak. He just looked at the back of Jian Mo, who could only leave in a hurry because of the passage of time. The eagle''s eyes were as deep as the sea. She can''t wait to get a divorce? It''s because I found Su Jun and left this house, isn''t it? Marital morality? Hehe, do you expect to fall into the arms of other men as soon as possible after divorce? Gu Beichen thought about this, and his mood gradually began to be gloomy. However, for what... He didn''t think about it, and didn''t want to think about why? When Jane Mo arrives at the meeting room, she has one minute to continue the process that she didn''t complete in the morning The comparison has been carried out to the tenth floor. Jian Mo gradually lost his mind watching everyone''s design 3D drawing. Gu Beichen called her up just to talk about the divorce? In fact, he doesn''t need to say... Shen Chu found her identity yesterday, and she already knew that this step may have accelerated. She admitted that all the expressions and words just upstairs were angry... She deserved that she didn''t fully control her emotions. Can''t she pretend she doesn''t care? "The idea of the 17th floor is so unique..." Xiang said with a sudden sigh. Jian Mo''s thoughts were disturbed and subconsciously looked at the big screen... There was a 17 story design scheme on it. The all glass system can see the outside from the inside, but not the inside from the outside. It makes people feel exposed to the public''s eyes. In fact, it is independent and closed... The feeling of self-restraint in the madness is really refreshing. This design, in fact, the most important thing is to grasp the modern people''s bold desire to go out of line... The bathroom is also designed in this way. Jane Mo can almost imagine that... People sitting on the toilet feel the stimulation brought by the contrast psychology that people outside are looking at wantonly, but they can''t see... It must be exciting. "Thank you..." the design representative bowed and smiled after the explanation, and then took his seat. "Below are the three companies on the 18th floor..." Shang Junhao glanced over the three people involved in the design of the 18th floor. "It''s still a lot to decide who will start first!" At the same time, the top floor president''s office, placed on the video device used for meetings in the office, has cut out the picture of the comparison conference room. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes are deep, just one eye, and his sight has captured the figure of Jian mo Chapter 136 "CCD first, harchitects second... Last Xiangyu!" Shang Junhao said with the lottery results. Gu Beichen frowned slightly when listening to Shang Junhao read the order, and a faint invisible helplessness overflowed in the eagle''s eyes At this time, it''s not good to finish last, unless... Your design is outstanding enough to make people refreshing. However, both CCD and harchitects are powerful architectural design clubs... Their designers are not only strong, but also experienced. Jane Mo obviously suffered a lot behind these two people! Sure enough Both CCD and harchitects adopt a very bold design. After the contrast design of the all glass system on the 17th floor, their two designs are more likable and in line with the club. "Their design is great..." Xiang night whispered, with a look of surprise and envy. "Alas, famous design is famous design!" Jian Mo glanced at the night. As a designer, she also admired the ideas of the designers of these two companies... However, it has come to this point. No matter good or bad, she can only fight in the end. "Now let''s welcome Xiangyu personnel," Shang Junhao said, looking at Jian mo. "the designers participating in the design are... Jian mo." Jane Mo stood up gracefully, nodded slightly with everyone with a smile, then took the sketch and walked forward I''ve been nervous all day. When it''s my own time, I''m a little angry with others and lose my prestige. On the contrary, I''m not nervous. She came forward and connected the computer to the projector, then stepped aside and was ready to fight Jane Mo at any time. Jane Mo is standing in front. Today she is wearing a business suit with a beige shirt and a black shirt. Her long hair is tied in a bun behind her head without any decoration She is good-looking, and with the confidence overflowing from her body at the moment, she shows a different kind of beauty "Hello everyone, I''m Jian mo of Xiangyu..." Jian Mo calmly made the opening remarks and timely placed the sketch on the projection scanner. "It''s a great honor to participate in the design of the 18th floor... My work this time is Diablo!" When hearing this name, many people can''t help frowning... The club is positioned with a manic personality, and "Diablo" is obviously incompatible with the whole. In fact, many people are not optimistic about Xiangyu After all, the people who compete with Xiangyu are too strong. Moreover, after just two exhibitions, including the person in charge of this time... Shang Junhao, the first-class designer of emperor, has no hope for Jian mo. Others don''t know how Xiangyu got involved, but he knows That was specially issued by Xiao Jing! Who is Xiao Jing? Special assistant to the President... What he means is obviously what the president means. However, in the emperor, everyone has their own space to play, even if Jian Mo was introduced by the President... If the design is not good, it will only humiliate themselves. Just as everyone''s mind turned sharply, a sketch appeared on the big screen... Then, under the sign of Jian Mo, he pressed the "enter" key in the evening, and the frame of the 3D effect picture immediately appeared in front of everyone. "18..." Jian Mo leaned to one side and said proudly in a timely calm. "For businessmen, it''s an auspicious number... But in a sense, it also represents a dark number." As a basic respect, even if we are not interested in the design of Jian Mo, we still listen carefully. "In Chinese mythology and legend, 18 represents 18 layers of hell..." Jian Mo calmly glided over all the designers participating in the comparison, and took a panoramic view of their frowning resistance, disdain, coldness, disapproval and so on. "My design today will focus on this meaning!" Press "enter" again in the evening. On the screen, it starts to change from frame drawing to color drawing, and then various decorations... It''s like a compressed project progress. "For people in the city now, what they want to go to places of entertainment such as clubs is a stimulus..." Jane Mo ignored that no one in the public eye affirmed her mood and began to explain her design concept. "This stimulus is nothing more than too much pressure. If you can''t get relief, you can only seek extremes to release..." Gu Beichen twitched and lit a cigarette. He slowly leaned against the high back chair and looked at Jian Mo in the picture. The eagle''s eyes became deep "Such extremes can often arouse subconscious resistance in the body... Then, the problem comes!" Jian Mo smiled, "if the resistance aroused cannot be released, it is easy to lead people to extremes." After a slight meal, Jane Mo continued, "either... Can continue to bear it. Or... Will rebel!" The meeting room was silent. Everyone''s only idea of the young and unknown Jian Mo was that she was beautiful... Once a woman was beautiful, she had to pay many times more efforts than others to be recognized. The 3D rendering has been painted. From each area... There are only two colors! Red and black! It represents the darkness and blood of hell... Two extremes. "My design focuses on the darkness under the 18 layer hell and the most direct human interpretation of blood..." Jane Mo continued. From beginning to end, there was only one emotion on her face, self-confidence! Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and talked about her design. The thin corners of his lips gradually put on a smile. That smile reached the bottom of his eyes from the moment of his heart. He has minor in architectural design and knows very well... A good designer should not only control the frame design, but also control the internal design of the frame. Otherwise, you can only be divided into external design and internal design... But you can''t be a truly qualified architectural design! No doubt... Jian Mo''s confidence and her design at the moment make Gu Beichen refreshing. In his impression, Jian Mo always appears in front of him with a false mask... Looking at the picture, she confidently explains her design. He has never seen her with such self-confidence. Serious people are the most beautiful... No doubt, Jian Mo interprets this sentence incisively and vividly. Jian Mo looked at the renderings that had been fully demonstrated, and she had explained all the design concepts and ideas, "that''s my design... Thank you!" Then Jane Mo bowed down with a smile and wanted to go back to her seat "Wait!" Shang Junhao opened his mouth when Jian Mo fretted, "ask a question." Jane Mo stopped, "OK!" "Black and red are extreme colors, in line with people''s extreme personality..." Shang Junhao asked sharply, "as you said, people will have extreme psychology under depression... But have you ever thought that under such extreme design, extreme psychology will be more depressed and wait for explosion?" Jane Mo smiled and said calmly, "the more resistance, the more attraction..." the smile from the corner of her mouth spread to the apricot eyes, showing her more confident, "isn''t it?" Chapter 137 In fact, such extremes can be explained by "the more you can''t get it, the more you want it", and Jian Mo''s design also explains the human nature under this sentence from beginning to end. Shang Junhao smiled faintly, nodded slightly and saw Jian Mo return to his seat. He just got up and said, "thank you for your participation in the club design..." in his hand was all the 3D renderings that the assistant had copied. "The result will come out before 12 noon tomorrow. Please wait for notice." Everyone got up and left again and again. There was not much entanglement in the design of floors 1 to 17, but on the 18th floor, there were two of the most powerful participants than the draft, and a dark horse like Jian mo. However, there is no doubt that the final result will still be contested between CCD and harchitects... Because no matter how bright Jian Mo''s design is, she is a newcomer and a small company, which will not be favored by everyone. "Sister Mo, do you think we have hope?" Asked Xiang night in a dignified mood. Jane Mo shook her head, "I don''t know..." The design of CCD and harchitects is professional and likable. Even she thinks she will fail in all aspects. The "divorce gift" mentioned by Gu Beichen is neither public nor private. She doesn''t want it! Male, an insult to her personality; Private, an insult to her self-esteem But what personality and self-esteem do people like her talk about? With a self mocking smile, Jian Mo stood at the gate of the emperor, looking at the road ahead, and gradually lost his mind "Sister Mo?" Xiang night didn''t know what was wrong with Jane Mo and asked with her eyes. Jane Mo didn''t take back her sight, but muttered, "in this world, only when you are strong will you stand at the top of human nature..." she mocked herself, hooked her lips and looked back at the emperor''s high-rise building, "because the world is under your feet, you can trample on it casually!" Frown at night, "sister Mo, please be popular..." Jian Mo astringed her eyes and looked at Xiang Wan with a smile. "Popular is... It''s over. It''s useless to worry about hair? Should I eat, drink, sleep... Whatever the result? I''ll lose my life anyway!" Then Jane Mo went to her car, opened the door and motioned to get on the bus at night Gu Beichen stood in front of the French window of the top floor office and looked down. He couldn''t see anything, but he seemed to see the tiny figure of Jian mo "Dong Dong!" Gu Beichen looked at the position of the eye door, "come in." Shang Junhao pushed the door and came in. "President, this is the 3D renderings designed by various companies..." he said slightly, "it has been screened, but the 18th floor is still undecided." Gu Beichen walked to his desk. "What''s your opinion?" "The three ideas are good..." Shang Junhao shrugged, "but I like Xiangyu best. The design is bold, which is also in line with the mood of modern urbanites and the evil taste of contrast." "Oh?" Gu Beichen lightly raised his eyebrows and eyes. His eyes were so indifferent, but there was a smile in the depths. Shang Junhao sat down and grinned, "although the designs of CCD and harchitects are also novel and consistent, the gimmicks are not enough... After all, the designers are too proud and limited." Gu Beichen pulled out his cigarette and lit it with a "bell" sound. After the steel lighter rang, "there is no personal emotion in it?" Thin lips lightly hooked a wanton radian and asked calmly. "Water?" Shang Junhao smiled, "president, I don''t recognize the people who came out of my hands... The same is true of the people recommended by the president." Gu Beichen didn''t tell Shang Junhao that he read the design comparison draft of the three companies on the 18th floor. At first, he intended to release water to compensate Jian mo. however, after reading her design, he knew that Jian Mo would win this time! "I won''t read the sample map. You can control it yourself!" Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and said. Shang Junhao nodded and got up with a smile, "then I''ll go out first..." Working in the emperor, many people want not only the high salary here, but also the decentralization of your ability... As long as you have talent, you can always find your position here. The next day, the 18 companies that obtained the design right of the emperor club will sign a contract with the emperor in three days. After all the design drafts are finalized, they will be publicized in the media. Before that, all the design drafts will be treated confidentially. "Mo Mo," Sun Ke shouted, "Mr. Yu asked you to go up." Jian Mo answered and went to Yu Ziyun''s office, "Mr. Yu, are you looking for me?" "Sit..." Yu Ziyun motioned, "I heard that the comparison results will be published before noon?" Jane nodded. "Are you confident?" Yu Ziyun looked at Jian Mo deeply and asked. Jane Mo shook her head. "I don''t have no confidence in my own design, but feel helpless for the other two rivals." Yu Ziyun has heard about the design of the other two companies from the gossip distributor at xiangnight. He came out of UCL. It is clear that as a commercial club, although Jian Mo''s design is very brilliant, it is too prominent in the end. "There is always a chance..." Yu Ziyun said jokingly without saying too much. "You owe the company so much money, I always have to find a way to let you go to UCL and repay me in the future." Jian Mo burst out laughing and thanked Yu Ziyun for making fun of her deliberately. Time becomes anxious because of waiting. Even though Jian Mo feels that she has little chance to win, she still looks forward to it... After all, this design carries the inspiration from her recent emotions. Just after 11 o''clock, Yu Ziyun and Tang Haoyang arrived at the engineering design department. Everyone looked at each other and subconsciously felt that it was related to the emperor''s comparison. Yu Ziyun grinned, and Tang Haoyang grinned "Informed," Yu Ziyun looked at Jian Mo, "three days later, Xiangyu went to the emperor to sign a contract and participate in improving the design of the 18th floor of the club!" Silence After a few seconds of silence, cheers and congratulations burst out in the office. Jane Mo stood in place, suddenly very calm... It seemed that she was too surprised, but it seemed that she couldn''t react. "Sister Mo, are you happy and stupid?" Xiang night stared and pushed Jian Mo down, laughing as if his work had won a prize. Jian Mo mechanically looked at the evening and pulled at the corners of her mouth. It seemed that she was not surprised by the result... It was reasonable and unexpected? She''s a little confused. Taking the mobile phone, under everyone''s suspicious eyes, Jian Mo even left the office without saying hello to Yu Ziyun, in a hurry. "What happened to sister Mo?" Asked Xiang night, who couldn''t react. Da Xiong leaned on the work grid and said with a smile, "it''s estimated to be a great surprise. Are you busy reporting the results to your boyfriend?" Everyone laughed as soon as they heard it Compared with their joy, Jane Mo''s mood was speechless... She climbed the stairs to the roof of the office building at one breath, took a deep breath for several times, and then dialed Gu Beichen. After the phone rang a few times, someone picked it up. She didn''t wait for someone to speak across from her. Then she asked, "Gu Beichen, is it my own ability to compare the draft, or did you release the water?" Chapter 138 Shen Chu first frowned when listening to the questioning voice on the phone, and then reacted to what Jian Mo was saying... She was silent and didn''t speak, but her hand didn''t hold the mobile phone was slightly clenched. "Gu Beichen, you talk!" Jane Mo gritted her teeth. She didn''t want to get any answer, just wanted to know if it was the water... If so, she accepted the "divorce gift"! People always have to be realistic, don''t they? Even if she doesn''t have the ability to go to UCL now, she still depends on this design to make her famous, doesn''t she? She owes a million dollars, and even her mother needs money if she meets the right heart again... Now, she can only bow down for money. Where does her pride come from? However, she needs to understand, even if it''s death... Even if it''s humiliation, she also needs to understand! Shen Chu listened to the heavy breathing sound from his mobile phone, didn''t say anything, and then hung up Jane Mo didn''t know why. When she listened to the hanging sound of "Dudu", she was stunned at first, and then laughed at herself... Just, laughing, laughing... And cried! There is no need for an answer. Gu Beichen''s attitude has told her the answer Tell yourself clearly that even if you are "drained", you should gladly accept such a result. But what? No, no... she can''t accept it! She is a designer. She has studied design for four years and wants to go to UCL for further study in her dreams... She wants to complete her father''s unfinished dreams. This is her obsession and the pride of a designer! But now? Can she only accept this reality? Jane Mo sucked her nose and raised her head. She tried to make her tears go back, but... She couldn''t even do this! The sun stung her tearful eyes, and everything seemed to collapse at this moment... Since two years ago, her world has been completely subverted. Everything... Is gone! Shen Chu took Gu Beichen''s mobile phone and looked at it, sipped her lips, and then calmly deleted the call records from Jian mo... She put her mobile phone back in place, just walked to the window and looked down at the international city at the foot of the emperor. No one can stop her... No one! The sound of opening the door came from behind. Shen Chu turned around and saw Xiao Jing pushing the door open. Gu Beichen took his pocket with one hand and came in cold with a handsome face. Seeing Shen Chu, Gu Beichen was slightly stunned, but he immediately recovered his calm. "That..." Xiao Jing looked at Shen Chu and then looked at Gu Beichen. "Chen Shao, I''ll do something else first." Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Xiao Jing consciously withdrew from the office. "Why are you here?" Gu Beichen''s voice couldn''t hear his emotion. The night before yesterday, after Shen Chu left, their four brothers drank a lot of wine. Later, he thought about calling Shen Chu, but with his mobile phone in his hand, he received the "accident" call from Jian mo. Then... Hehe, there''s no later. Is she the only one angry? He has too! As I said to the south, they are not spare tires Shen Chu pursed his lower lip and had a strong forbearance in the bottom of his eyes. "I was thinking, if I''ve been angry all the time, will you just be angry with me..." she laughed at herself. "I said to myself, I''ll give you three days... But I can''t wait!" Gu Beichen''s heart tightened. He stepped forward to hide his pride. Some wronged Shen Chu took it into his arms. "Xiao chu''er, I''m sorry..." there was an emotion in his voice that others couldn''t understand. There were hesitation, resistance... And some deep sighs that were only clear to him. "Beichen, I don''t want to be sorry!" Shen Chu sucked his nose and tried to hold back his tears, but she couldn''t help it. "I just want..." she bit her lower lip, "I just want you!" Gu Beichen didn''t say anything, but tightened his arms Shen Chu put his arms around Gu Beichen''s waist and choked, "after five years, I have no ambition... Come back, do you know how much I have to bear?" Gu Beichen closed his eyes and then asked, "the night before yesterday you said I didn''t understand... But did you have a chance to let me understand?" He said, let go of Shen Chu and looked at her red eyes. The eagle''s eyes were deep, "why did you leave five years ago?" Gu Beichen is stubborn like a fool. He wants to know why, but he just wants Shen Chu to say why Shen Chu''s lips moved back and forth, as if the words had reached her mouth, but she swallowed them forcefully, "is it impossible for us to go back to the past if I don''t say the reason?" Gu Beichen''s eyes became more and more profound. After watching Shen Chu for a while, he said with a slight sigh: "how can it be?" He mockingly hooked his thin lips, "you know..." After hearing this, Shen Chu could no longer lock his tears in his eyes, and "Susu" fell down "I''ll wait for you to get into my arms again..." I''ll wait for you to get into my arms again! " Gu Beichen mechanically grabbed Shen Chu, and his heart suddenly became empty... That feeling was like something was going to pass from his body, which made him feel at a loss. Xiangyu engineering company fell into joy because of the design of the emperor club, but where there are people, there are all kinds of life. Some people are really happy for you, others will smile hypocritically, and some people will be jealous and slander you, and only when your height is lower than theirs can they be reconciled. Some people say Jian Mo''s strength, while others say that Jian Mo depends on hidden rules... Otherwise, why do good things fall to Xiangyu in succession? Whether it''s Chu Zixiao''s law firm, Su Junli''s concert hall, or emperor''s club design, the three recent figures in Los Angeles seem to have something to do with Jane mo. "If it''s not good, I don''t want to hear..." Yu Ziyun looked at all the employees in the conference room. "Celebrate that Jian Mo got the emperor''s design, celebrate the dinner in the evening, set the place, and I''ll pay the bill." The people in the engineering design department cheered first, and then they were happy one by one whether they were jealous or not... Who would ask for trouble if they ate some. Compared with the smile on Jane Mo''s face, everyone''s joy was obviously much more real. She looked at the excitement of yelling for the most expensive hotel in Los Angeles to eat, and her heart kept calm. Hang your eyes and look at your mobile phone Jane Mo doesn''t know what she is expecting... Nor what she is waiting for urgently. The financial news reported the selected design companies on the results of the emperor''s comparison, and the three companies involved in the 18th floor design became the focus of the media. Undoubtedly, everyone is guessing how a small company that can''t get into the eyes of the emperor on weekdays can participate in the draft comparison... And even beat the two powerful companies to get the design right in the end. This does not count. Finally, the emperor released the news that CCD and harchitects will participate in the design of phase VI of Yujing Lake... No doubt, it makes people feel like a "comfort Award". The ability of the media is to infinitely expand the business of sesame and mung beans. When it is known that Xiangyu participated in the design of Jian Mo, more people took out the previous business and reported it again Even her "intimate" behavior with Xiao Jing in the rain was revealed. There is no doubt that everyone tacitly believes that Jian Mo is the hidden rule The mobile phone ringtone remembered when Jane Mo was too empty. She took it and looked at it. There was only a number and no name. Then he picked it up and put it in his ear. "Hello, Jane Mo! Who is it, please?" The other end of the phone was silent at first, and then came a soft but capable voice, "Hello, I''m... Shen Chu!" Chapter 139 Jane Mo was slightly shocked. She didn''t expect Shen Chu to call her... The most important thing is, how did she know her number? With doubts, Jane Mo said calmly, "Hello!" Two words, showing the Politeness under alienation, without too much emotional overflow. Shen Chu on the other end of the phone was slightly silent and just said, "well... Do you have time to have dinner together?" Her voice was soft and capable, and her hesitation made people feel neither humble nor arrogant. Jane Mo doesn''t have to think about what Shen Chu wants to see her for. It''s funny... Is she invited by the junior three now? With such a wicked thought, Jane Mo answered, "OK, when?" The loser doesn''t lose the battle. Anyway, she is also the original match now... Although she is in danger. "Are you free this evening?" Shen Chu asked. Jian Mo looked at a group of people in the engineering design department who were still talking about how to eat, drink and have fun in the evening. She raised her eyebrow and said, "Oh, I''m afraid I''m not free tonight... People in the company are going out to celebrate." "About the design of emperor club?" Shen Chu said softly. Jian Mo is not surprised. Shen Chu knows that after all, the news outside is boiling, "right!" She admitted generously and even thought maliciously. Would Shen Chu be angry if he thought Gu Beichen deliberately drained the water? Unfortunately, Shen Chu was not angry and even said with a smile, "I also studied architectural design... I saw your design, which is very good." "..." Jian Mo just smiled. Shen Chu learned design. She had heard others mention it the last time she was in Li Jinxi''s best friend''s room. "I haven''t been on the road for a long time. I can talk about it when I have the opportunity..." Shen Chu said with ease and pleasure. "Beichen once minor in architectural design. The three of us are really lucky." Fate... Jane Mo wants to spit blood on these two words. Not angry until Shen Chu, she has hurt herself... Is the subtext of Shen Chu''s remark ''Gu Beichen studied architectural design because of her''? "Oh, yeah... It''s fate..." Jane Mo picked her eyebrows. She couldn''t see too much emotion on her beautiful face, but said calmly, "after all, it all matters, right?" Now, Shen Chu changed his face in an instant Jane Mo felt that the people on the phone were silent and hissed coldly... She was not the one standing beaten. Even if she was beaten, how could she return it. Shen Chu changed the subject. "I''m not free tonight. What about tomorrow?" "Well, tomorrow night!" After Jane Mo answered generously, she casually said a few scene words and hung up the phone. At the moment of hanging up the phone, her heart began to tighten... The feeling of emptiness after forced installation cut out her heart. In the excitement of the people in the engineering design department, Jian Mo dealt with the hypocrisy of those who came to sincerely congratulate and pick up the acid from time to time, and stayed at home until work. "Sister Mo, let''s go..." Xiang night went to eat, drink and have fun in absolute best condition, packed up everything and roared. Jane got up in response to the sound, and her mobile phone rang Picked up the phone and saw that it was su Junli. The corner of his mouth raised slightly and answered, "Jun Li?" Then she took her bag and went out. "After a busy day, I saw the news..." Su Jun''s warm voice came from the other end of the phone, "congratulations." "Thank you..." Jian Mo sincerely thanked Su Jun and knew that Su Jun''s "Congratulations" was sincere. "Off duty?" "Well..." "Let''s have dinner and celebrate!" Su Junli said with a smile. Jian Mo looked at everyone waiting for the elevator and said with a smile, "sorry, I have an appointment today..." Su Junli also heard the noisy noise of everyone, "and the people of the company?" "Yes!" Su Junli smiled. "It seems... I can only make way." After a slight pause, he continued, "by the way, I told you last time... Grandpa wants to call you to eat..." "Ah?" Jane Mo was surprised. "Aren''t you kidding?" Su Junli smiled, "Grandpa is very interested in your talent..." Jane Mo knew that he was talking about the relative sound sense. It''s not surprising to think so. "I should visit the old man..." she followed everyone into the elevator, meditated and said, "weekend?" "OK." Su Junli answered softly, "I''ll wait for your call." "Yes." Jane answered, "bye!" "Sister Mo, who is it?" Xiangwan asked with a curious and gossip look in his eyes. Jane Mo rolled her eyes. "If you don''t mix in the design industry, you can be a paparazzi in the future... Because," she paused and said seriously, "that''s your nature!" "Ha ha..." The people in the elevator were already laughing at the evening. We went to Feitian hotel together to have dinner and entertainment. We made it clear that we should kill Yu Ziyun severely and let him bleed However, Yu Ziyun is also happy. He has fought with Luo Xiaojing for so long. It''s rare to be proud. How can he miss the opportunity? However, when everyone saw Luo Xiaojing also appear at the celebration banquet, everyone smiled tacitly "No wonder president Yu is so generous today. It seems that he returned with the beauty in his arms with the momentum of our foam..." Ding Dang said softly at the corner of his mouth, and then smiled at everyone. The people in Xiangyu in Feitian hotel are jubilant, which is obviously a little depressed compared with the imperial headquarters at the moment. Invested by the emperor, an unfinished viaduct across Donghai city and Nanhai city suddenly had an accident! A collapse of the bridge caused several injuries, but fortunately no one died. With a "pop", Gu Beichen threw the folder in his hand directly on the face of Li Tianyu, the senior executive in charge of the project... Suddenly, the air in the originally dignified conference room was frozen together. "How do you explain such an accident?" Gu Beichen''s voice was very calm. Even his cold face didn''t have too much emotion, just as he didn''t throw out the folder angrily just now. Li Tianyu didn''t move. His lips opened and closed several times and didn''t say anything. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly into a gap and said coldly, "who is responsible for the design this time?" He once studied architectural design in UCL. The collapse was obviously caused by design problems, resulting in uneven bearing capacity of the bridge... He should be glad that he found the problem before he finished it. Otherwise, after putting into use, the consequences will be unimaginable. "Komi''s Dave..." Li Tianyu swallowed and said. Komi is a well-known bridge design firm in the United States in recent years. According to reason... Such principled mistakes should not be made. Gu Beichen of this company has heard that a bridge in Russia won the Pritzker construction award the year before last... It is hard to say that such a company has such problems. When the meeting room condensed again, Xiao Jing suddenly handed his mobile phone to Gu Beichen, "Chen Shao!" Gu Beichen looked down. When he saw the content on the message, the eagle''s eyes narrowed into a shocking light. Almost at the same time, he had got up and walked to the meeting room with big steps under the unknown reason of everyone Chapter 140 "If the boss and Xiaochen went up to the bridge together, he hurried to check the situation from the front to the back," Gu said Gu Beichen''s cold facial lines have tightened up. He walked to the office with one hand and his thin lips have become a straight line The emperor''s anniversary is approaching, and the second uncle is already ready to move... He has made thousands of calculations, but he still missed them. At such a time, the emperor''s occurrence of such an accident has undoubtedly had a serious negative impact on the Emperor... Even if it is suppressed, it can be imagined that the second uncle made a fuss on this matter at the annual shareholders'' meeting. Into the office, Gu Beichen dialed the phone to Long Xiao, "are you sure?" "Fifty percent!" The faint voice of the Dragon owl came, "it can''t be confirmed." Komi is a company with a history of seven or eight years. Although it began to rise in recent years, it is far fetched to say that Komi has a relationship with Gu mohuai. Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually became deep, and a cold radian appeared on one side of his thin lip. "How''s the acquisition of individual shares?" "It can''t be carried out in the open," said the Dragon owl calmly, "but... Another group of people are also collecting recently." Gu Beichen could not see the bottom of his sight. The ink pupil was as dark as ink, as if ready to devour everything at any time. "I know..." he hung up the phone and immediately dialed Gu CI. When Gu CI received the call, he was signing the equity transfer. After writing, he pushed the transfer to Chu Zixiao. At the same time, he took the mobile phone placed aside. Seeing that it was Gu Beichen, he ''cluttered'' in his heart, then picked it up and put it in his ear, "Beichen?" Chu Zixiao raised his eyes and looked at Gu CI. He didn''t know what Gu Beichen was doing when he called? Gu Beichen stood in front of such a large glass window, with eagle eyes overlooking the whole city of Los Angeles, "elder sister, have you considered the share transfer?" Gu CI looked at Chu Zixiao and motioned him to go out first Chu Zixiao nodded slightly, then took the equity transfer and left the study. At the moment of closing the door, Gu CI said slowly, "I''ve transferred the shares to Zixiao..." she was a little sad. "Beichen, the emperor''s shares were originally given to Zixiao by my father, but I manage them temporarily... Now I transfer them to Zixiao. No matter how he decides, I won''t participate." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly deep, and after the corners of his mouth hooked up the arc that seemed to be absent, he calmly replied: "well." "Beichen..." Gu CI wanted to say something, but he was interrupted by Gu Beichen. "Elder sister, it''s false to say too much!" Gu Beichen said goodbye and hung up. "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen with a dignified face. Gu Beichen looked at the neon outside the sleepless city. Mo Tong slowly lifted his thin lips and said, "elder sister transferred the shares to Zixiao''s name, Xiao Jing... Do you think it''s simple or difficult?" Xiao Jing''s eyes lit up as soon as he heard it. "Of course it''s simple..." he was a little excited. "Chu Shao has no sense of business. Even if Chu group wants Chen Shao, it''s estimated that he doesn''t care?" Gu Beichen glanced at Xiao Jing, and his smile deepened... But that smile was not easy, but filled with a lot of deep meaning. As if... He had predicted what conditions Chu Zixiao would negotiate with him with his shares! Night, for a city that never sleeps, Los Angeles is intoxicated. Whether you are happy or not, or whether you are depressed... It seems that it can make you completely abandon everything in the day at night. After a meal, Xiangyu''s people had been knocked down a large area... Those who didn''t fall down shouted to continue to play in the club of the hotel. Yu Ziyun was happy to spend money because he finally "raised his eyebrows" in front of Luo Xiaojing "I can''t..." Jian Mo has been drunk by several people and fainted. "I won''t go later... I want to go back... Go back to make up my sleep!" "Jane Mo, you''re the protagonist today. It''s ridiculous if you don''t go?" Some people shouted when they quit, and immediately everyone echoed one after another. Jane Mo stared at the man slightly drunk, "pull it down. It''s the king to spend money. What does it matter if I don''t show up?" As soon as her words fell, she immediately aroused everyone''s laughter. "Sister Mo, are you really not going?" Asked Xiang night. Jane Mo shook her head. "Don''t let me down... I''ve been fighting for several nights and finally relaxed. Don''t stop me from going back to bed and loving each other..." "OK, Jane Mo, go back and have a rest..." Yu Ziyun said with a smile. "Next, as long as it doesn''t affect tomorrow''s work, you can play as much as you want... Single, I''ll buy it!" As soon as Yu Ziyun''s words fell, everyone shouted excitedly... Few people really cared whether Jian Mo would go to the next venue. Jane Mo got out of the hotel, took a taxi back to the Runze garden, leaned against the door and looked at the faint light from the password lock... Suddenly remembered that the key was locked to the villa. Now, press the password... Don''t worry about the key anymore. Jian Mo pressed the password to enter the room, stood at the door, looked at the light and "brushed" it like a flow job, and her vision with wine gas gradually became blurred Just because it was too busy and too cold at the moment, the things Jane Mo deliberately forgot rushed up in an instant. She threw herself powerlessly on the couch and looked at the starry sky within reach across the tempered glass. Her heart became tired under the contrast The cell phone ring broke the silent space. Jane Mo didn''t want to move, but the other party seemed to keep playing. Jane Mo got up and took out her cell phone from her bag. At that moment, her heart was still filled with hope... Although she knew it couldn''t be Gu Beichen. But when she saw Chu Zixiao, she still felt the speed of her heart falling Pick it up and put it in your ear. "Foam..." On the phone, Chu Zixiao''s magnetic voice was particularly perplexing at night. Jane Mo lay on the sofa with her mobile phone, "HMM." She answered gently. After drinking a lot of wine, her head was a little dizzy. "If... You want to talk about the design of the club... I don''t want to talk." "What is there to say about the established results?" Chu Zixiao whispered softly. Jian Mo''s self mocking smile... Yes, he already knew yesterday that she would succeed today. He already knew from Gu Beichen that she would release water, right? "It''s so late. What''s up?" Jane Mo fanned her weak eyelashes. After a few seconds of silence, Chu Zixiao asked, "if I give you a condition, you can leave him proudly... Would you like to?" Chapter 141 Jian Mo''s temperament Chu Zixiao knows... When she was in Luoyang University, her family conditions were very good, but she never showed it. Proud of her, she has made more efforts than others in her professional field to prove that she is not a vase... Her works have won some design awards in school. How could she tolerate Gu Beichen''s charity to her? Often... Early maturing people are late maturing, and proud people are stubborn and childish in some way at some time! This time Gu Beichen gave Jian mo the right to design in the way of compensation. Even if she accepted... She must not get out of this strange circle in her heart. The only thing that can make her come out... Is to take the lead in turning around proudly in front of Gu Beichen and Shen Chu. Jian Mo looked at the sight of the crystal lamp and gradually lost focus. After a while, she said powerlessly, "is it the topic between us? It can only be this?" Chu Zixiao raised his eyebrows and said with a deep understanding of his sight: "Mo Mo, in this situation, do you have to wait for Beichen to speak?" When Shen Chu came back, even the "divorce gift" was given... In order to maintain the final dignity, Jian Mo should take the lead in proposing divorce. With a self mocking smile, Jane Mo closed her eyes when she looked at the crystal lamp blackening, and weakly reiterated, "can you stop worrying about Gu Beichen and me?" Chu Zixiao pursed his lips, "who knows what will happen in the future?" He also laughed at himself, "when I left Los Angeles, I thought you would wait for me... But it didn''t take long for you to break up with me. So why don''t you know that after you left Beichen, it''s impossible for me and you?" Jian Mo weakly opened his eyes, "I will divorce Gu Beichen. I really can''t guarantee anything in the future... But you are definitely not the first object I consider!" After that, Jane Mo hung up the phone and turned it off directly. Chu Zixiao is a lawyer. The most taboo of lawyers is that they lose their control by procrastinating No matter what conditions he has now, she can leave with pride, but she knows very well that a person without pride capital should not turn around with pride. The next day, the night was full of stars, but in the morning it rained. It''s already late autumn, and such rainy days become particularly cold. No matter how much criticism the outside world has on Jian Mo''s getting the design drawing of the emperor''s club, because of this news, it has undoubtedly completely started the names of Xiangyu and Jian mo. "Mo Mo, there are three orders named for you to design today..." Sun Ke sorted out the list and handed it to Jian Mo, "have a look." Jane Mo nodded. Being able to receive an order represents a commission and bonus. Although she resists this effect, she can only accept it powerlessly... She has no right to say no to money now! It was raining heavily when she got off work in the afternoon. Jian Mo drove to the Diamondstar restaurant about Shen Chu. When she waited for the traffic light, she looked at the overcast and gray weather outside and was very depressed. The autumn rain in Los Angeles this year seems to be more diligent than in previous years. Such weather always makes people feel sad. When the green light is on, Jian Mo starts the car and continues to move forward. Because of the rain and the tide of going to and from work, the speed of the car shop is very slow On the 79th floor of emperor group, the atmosphere in the president''s office is somewhat treacherous when people are in a hurry to go home or get together on rainy days. "Condition!" Gu Beichen came straight to the point. Chu Zixiao smiled, "you know I must have conditions?" He raised his eyebrows and played with a pen on his desk. Gu Beichen took out his cigarette. The crisp sound of the steel lighter "Dang" slipped past and lit the cigarette... He took a cold breath and spit out smoke, which blurred his cold, carved face. "Otherwise?" Gu Beichen picked a cool radian at the end of his eyebrow. "This share elder sister will transfer it to you at this time... Didn''t you put forward it?" Chu Zixiao frowned and sighed, "I hate your insight into everything." Gu Beichen flicked the ash, "under the time and event, I have to get the shares back... Conditions, you open!" "You know...". Gu Beichen deeply stared at Chu Zixiao, narrowed slightly and became cold, "I don''t know!" Chu Zixiao knew that Gu Beichen knew whether to pretend or not, but he still said, "if Jian Mo asks for a divorce, I hope you can agree!" "Zixiao," Gu Beichen said, with a faint curve of evil charm on one side of his thin lips, some of which are clear to his chest and some evil spirit, "sometimes it''s not good for people to be persistent..." "What do you think of Shen Chu?" Chu Zixiao asked. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was slightly deep, but he immediately recovered his peace. "In fact... You already know that Jane Mo and I are going to divorce. Isn''t it unnecessary for you to do so?" With that, he twisted out the smoke in the ashtray, and all his actions were elegant and cool. Chu Zixiao slightly picked the corner of her eyebrows and slowly said, "I don''t want her to leave without dignity..." Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually became a whirlpool. He looked at Chu Zixiao''s serious face and suddenly felt extremely annoying! Jane Mo parked her car at Diamondstar and looked at the luxurious western restaurant sign in a low-key. After a glance, her vision fell on the window The drizzle wetted the glass. Shen Chu sat there quietly like a picture, holding a magazine in his hand and a glass of red wine in front of him. Under such a scene, he was particularly peaceful. Jane Mo converged her eyes and got out of the car and went into the restaurant "Hello, how many people, please?" The waiter came forward and asked. "I have an appointment..." said Jane Mo, looking towards the window. The waiter also looked down her line of sight, "please follow me!" He said with a smile and led Jane Mo over. After Jian Mo sat down opposite Shen Chu, Shen Chu looked up as if surprised "A little traffic jam..." Jane Mo calmly explained why she was late. There was only a polite smile on her face. She was decent and generous in both momentum and emotion. "It''s rude to ask you out..." Shen Chu said apologetically, with helplessness in his good-looking eyebrows and eyes. Jane Mo smiled, "abrupt has also made an appointment." Shen Chu twitched imperceptibly in the corners of his mouth. Unexpectedly, Jian Mo didn''t show any mercy, "order a meal first?" Then she rang the call bell. The waiter came quickly. Shen Chu asked about Jian Mo''s taste and ordered something with ease. The waiter poured red wine for Jane mo before leaving with the meal card "Come often?" Asked Jane mo. Shen Chu smiled. "Lao he and Beichen came here before..." she said, quickly stopped her mouth, pursed her lower lip awkwardly, and looked at Jian Mo and was very sorry. Jian Mo could not see the truth of Shen Chu''s expression at this moment, but said calmly, "well, he and I have never been here..." she shrugged her shoulders as if she said casually, "he is not a person who likes memories!" Chapter 142 Shen Chu''s face changed slightly, but he recovered his calm in an instant. "Beichen I know is very nostalgic," she smiled. "Grandpa Gu once gave him a model he wanted when he graduated from junior high school. He has kept it for a long time." "Oh?" Jian Mo said softly, "no matter how long it''s kept, it''s just a toy..." after a slight pause, she smiled at the corners of her mouth, looked at Shen Chu curiously in her good-looking eyes and asked, "so... Is the model still there now?" Shen Chu''s mouth twitched slightly, and his hand holding the red wine glass also clenched slightly Looking at Shen Chu''s expression, Jian Mo knew that the model was gone now. I''ve been around Gu Beichen for the past two years. Even if Shen Chu is the person Gu Beichen likes, how can she always... She''s still Gu Beichen''s wife. Shen Chu is a smart man. In a few words, he has heard that Jian Mo is not a simple man. At the right time, the waiter sent the first dish to resolve the embarrassment under the temporary confrontation. Shen Chu greeted Jian Mo for dinner and took a red wine glass to signal, "Congratulations, you have got the top priority of the 18th floor design of the emperor club!" Jane Mo also grabbed the red wine glass and touched Shen Chu gently. She picked her eyebrow and said, "thank you!" "Today, I told Beichen that your design is very unique..." Shen Chu pretended to be nothing. "Beichen and I came out of UCL and like such bold and extraordinary design very much." After a slight pause, she sipped the red wine and put down her glass. "There are not many people who can design this way in China, and Shang Junhao can''t accept it." At the meeting that day, Shang Junhao asked several questions. Although he didn''t see whether he liked it or not, it was clear that some personal preferences were mixed in the questions Jane Mo''s heart has begun to sink... But she tried to keep calm and even smiled at the corners of her mouth. In any case, you can''t lose the battle if you have lost your feelings! "Miss Shen wants to say that ah Chen means that I can get this design?" Jane Mo picked her eyebrows and asked with a smile, and then some innocent fanned her eyes, "isn''t it strange for her husband to take care of her wife?" Shen Chu smiled, "you misunderstood, I just simply appreciate your design..." she held her cheek in her hand, smiled sincerely at the corners of her mouth, but slipped across her eyes. "Today, I heard Beichen mention asking you to participate in the manuscript. It is estimated that she is'' appreciating ''your design?" Some things, say too much but want to cover up, point to the end, can make people think in their hearts. For this point, in order to ensure his status in the Shen family since childhood, and in the circle, Shen Chu hopes to be noticed by the public. Obviously, he has a good time After all, Jane Mo still changed her face. With the concept of entering the Lord first and the subtext in Shen Chu''s words at the moment... Jane Mo couldn''t help laughing at herself. Is this Xiao San coming to yell with her? Gu Beichen asked her to participate in the design and even let her get the design. In fact, it was just to compensate her Gu Beichen walked to the glass window with his hands in his pockets, overlooking the whole city of Los Angeles... Because of the rain, all the neon and night were shrouded in the hazy. "Zixiao," Gu Beichen shouted. At the same time, the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly, and the cold light shone from the depths of the ink pupil. "A person''s pride is not what you think, especially Jianmo." With that, he turned slowly and looked at Chu Zixiao. There was a touch of complex emotion on her cold, carved face: "I inspired Jane Mo to participate in the design of the club... But whether she can succeed in the end depends on herself." Chu Zixiao frowned slightly, and his eyes were at a loss. "Junhao likes her design, so she got the right to design the club... You," Gu Beichen''s eyes suddenly shot two sharp lights, "understand?" Chu Zixiao''s heart seemed to be suddenly stabbed by the light of his eyes, which surprised him that he didn''t respond for a moment. "Jian Mo is a designer, she has her pride. Such pride, i..." Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently raised a wanton radian, coldly but with pride, "... Won''t kill her such pride!" Chu Zixiao suddenly stood up, "even so, don''t you still want to divorce her? A person who has no autonomy over his marriage can be proud?" Gu Beichen youyou said, "at least... I won''t divorce her because of the design scheme or your shares..." Chu Zixiao was slightly shocked. He looked at Gu Beichen''s proud and cold back, and suddenly he couldn''t adapt... Beichen, isn''t he willing? Why is there resistance in his words? Thinking like this, Chu Zixiao couldn''t help but dilate his pupils and move the corners of his mouth for several times before asking, "what about Shen Chu? Because a woman can keep Jian Mo proud?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and then stretched out again... He just turned and looked out again, looking at the rain winding down on the glass, and didn''t speak. Soft piano music permeates the restaurant with elegant style and romantic atmosphere... Jane Mo listens to the past story of Shen Chu and Gu Beichen "if you don''t notice". Jane Mo thinks she is really a hospitable guest, which is embodied in that a wife can listen to her husband''s childhood sweetheart talk about their previous stories. Shen Chu looked at the piano player vaguely. "I learned the piano for him. He plays the piano really well... And very charming." As she spoke, she seemed to fall into memory. "Sometimes I wonder how much one person can do for another... Obviously," she looked back at Jian Mo, "time can''t be erased." Jane Mo picked up the red wine glass and put it on her lips. She lifted it slightly. The mellow red wine slipped through the taste buds. It was clear that the aroma was overflowing, but she felt bitter. Jian Mo swallowed the bitter red wine and looked up at Shen Chu slightly. "Don''t you think it''s impolite to tell Gu Beichen''s wife about you and his past?" "Jian Mo, I know you and Beichen are not together for love..." Shen Chu said politely, "you are still young, don''t you want to seek your own love?" Jane Mo smiled wildly, "love?" She said softly, "that''s what people like you can pursue. People like us are naturally tacky and realistic..." Putting down the glass, Jian Mo continued, "Miss Shen, if you came here to talk about your past with ah Chen, I''ve heard it... As for what you want, I''m sorry, I''m not going to divorce ah Chen for the time being." She smiled, but that smile was stiff in the corners of her mouth and showed coldness. Jane Mo took her bag and got up. When she passed Shen Chu, youyou said, "in fact, Miss Shen can persuade ah Chen to throw me a divorce agreement directly..." Arrogant glanced sideways at Shen Chu with a slightly changed face. Jian Mo pressed down her tumultuous mood and left with a proud step Chapter 143 The night lights converged into a long river of lights under the rain, dizzying people''s joys and sorrows. Jane Mo drove around in a rainy night in Los Angeles. She didn''t know what she was doing. She just knew that she didn''t want to go back to the place where there was no smell of home... What high-end technology could not make up for her sad heart at the moment. A person who has no self-esteem in marriage, love or ability can only be shrouded in boundless darkness and sink constantly... Sink again. The rain stopped, but the world was still wet and cold. Jian Mo was a little tired. She parked the car on the roadside, opened the door and got off the bus. She went to a small pavilion beside the bypass and sat down... The cold wind blew suddenly, and she shivered uncontrollably. Jane Mo didn''t leave. She just lay on the cold stone table and looked at the front with dull and empty eyes. Gradually, there was no focus at all Su Jun looked at the figure in the pavilion from a distance from sitting in the car, and his heart was suddenly stung. At that time, when she went back from the concert hall to wait for the traffic light, Jane Mo''s car just stopped aside... He opened the window to say hello, but she didn''t respond at all. I don''t know what to think. When the green light was on, he followed her... Around Los Angeles in a circle until he stopped here. From beginning to end, she didn''t notice his existence Su Junli is a little angry. It''s not that Jian Mo didn''t find him, but that she was angry. What should she do if she followed someone with an ulterior motive? After a while, Su Jun Li saw Jian Mo lying there motionless, and couldn''t help but frown. He looked at the dark ink space that seemed to be pressing down, and got out of the car worried that she was ill. When Su Junli came to the pavilion, he suddenly stopped Jane Mo''s eyes didn''t blink, and tears gushed out like a broken dike. The hot tears ran across the cold skin. Jian Mo didn''t move and didn''t find Su Jun standing there... It was just the pain in the position of her heart. She couldn''t control it. When she was with Chu Zixiao before, she didn''t seem to have felt such stinging pain... That kind of pain is a suffocating feeling that she can''t control. It''s like drowning. She will die at any time. "Mo Mo..." Su Junli called softly, but Jian Mo didn''t respond at all. He came forward and sat down beside Jian Mo, blocking her sight. "Mo Mo?" Jane Mo trembled her eyelashes, and the big tears rolled down again, but there was still no response. Su Jun''s worried eyebrows tightened together. He gently moved Jian Mo, "Mo Mo, what''s the matter, huh?" The soft voice of Qingyi was like warm wind, but it was anxious. Jian Mo finally had a reaction. First she looked at Su Junli stupidly, and then sat up slowly... When her thoughts completely closed, she quickly turned her face aside and began to wipe her tears carelessly. Su Junli didn''t stop Jian Mo''s movement, but his eyes overflowed with heartache... Then he fished Jian Mo into his arms and hugged her tightly without thinking. People''s hearts are sometimes strong and sometimes fragile Jane Mo had wiped away her tears, but Su Jun''s action made her completely collapse. With the sound of "wow", her body began to twitch and cry... As if to vent all the emotions accumulated in the past two days. Su Junli''s heart was immediately wrenched by Jian Mo''s cry. He tightly surrounded her trembling body, put his chin on her head, and gently opened his mouth: "if you want to cry, try to cry... After crying, we''re still strong and optimistic Jian Mo, okay?" Jane Mo didn''t answer him, but she was crying hard, and her little hand was clutching the clothes in her hand Su Jun''s gentle and handsome face gradually overflowed with sadness. He didn''t know what had happened to her. However, he studied psychology, but he peeped into her sadness If a marriage is unhappy, why should she confine herself in it? Jane Mo, you are such a proud and independent person. How can you be willing to endure such sadness The sound of "click click" shows a trace of treachery in the empty night. The sound of the professional SLR camera that turns off the flash and starts the night mode glides quietly The man looked at the photos on the screen and then looked at the two people in the pavilion. A touch of excited smile overflowed from the corners of his mouth... Even, he had already figured out the title of tomorrow''s front page! ¡ª¡ªThe piano prince meets the beauty at night. Is hugging in the pavilion a romantic appointment or going to the clouds and rain in the car? Just after a line ready to go home, he caught the big news again... The man thought, and the smile from the corners of his mouth immediately spread to the bottom of his eyes. The man turned to take photos with Su Mo''er, and then took another look at the sheep. Jane Mo didn''t know how long she cried, but she gradually stopped the momentum and pushed Su Jun away. Su Jun left the gentleman to let go of Jian Mo, looked at her deeply, and then took out his handkerchief and handed it to her Jane Mo was not hypocritical. After taking it, she wiped her face and said with some guilt, "I''m sorry, your clothes still have..." as she said, she lifted the handkerchief on her hand. "I''ll wash it and send it to you later." "Nothing..." Su Junli said softly with a smile. Jane Mo drooped her eyes and was not in a better mood because of the vent. Su Jun stepped back from his suit and put on Jian Mo, "can you tell me why he cried so sad?" Jian Mo smiled with self mockery and said with some fatigue: "the expert said... Tears are a kind of detoxification." "Beauty?" Su Jun left lightly Yi, and then laughed, and didn''t continue to ask. Suddenly, Su Jun left with a stagnant look, then stood up and said, "wait..." the words fell, and others had rushed to their car. Jian Mo looked at Su Junli''s back in a light fruit green shirt and a suit vest. Her vision gradually drifted away... She didn''t know why he was here, but the hug just now was really warm. The self mocking smile, Jane Mo''s heart is rustling In fact, at the moment when her thoughts gathered back, she was stunned for a moment... Just because she thought Gu Beichen was sitting in front of her. Since when did she rely so much on that man? Su Junli came back soon with a cello in his hand. Jane Mo sucked her nose and looked at Su Junli with some doubts "You detoxify with tears, and I cultivate your mood with music." Su Jun said with a smile, "well, soothing emotions help you sleep at night. Good sleep is also a kind of beauty!" With a puff, Jane Mo couldn''t help laughing, although it was a little bitter "In order to accommodate me," Jane Mo said with a smile, "it''s really difficult for a psychologist like you..." Chapter 144 The night air after the rain is full of cool breath. The low and magnetic Cello Sound is filled around. It is as soft as a sunny person''s hand, gently brushing your cheek, caressing with pity Jian Mo knows that Su Jun will leave many kinds of musical instruments, and the piano is the most talked about. She didn''t expect that even if he played the cello, he could make people feel so beautiful. Su Junli''s body shook slightly with the action of pulling the bow, but his soft but deep eyes never left Jian mo... He seemed to want to see through her soul through her eyes. The last scale fell slowly, Su Junli raised his hand holding the bow slightly, and the aftersound of the string gradually fell The corner of Jane Mo''s mouth raised a shallow smile, which showed the ease under the nerve relief. "Does it sound good?" Su Jun asked with a gentle smile. Jane nodded. "It sounds good!" Su Junli smiled, not because of Jane Mo''s appreciation, but because the sadness in her eyes gradually dispersed, "it''s late, I''ll take you back... Huh?" He asked softly. Jane Mo smiled and looked at her car. "I''m driving!" "I''ll take you to the community!" Su Junli''s voice is very soft, as long as a violin. Jian Mo looked at Su Jun''s insistence from the bottom of his eyes and had to nod, "OK!" Su Jun left the car and followed Jian Mo''s car. He didn''t stop slowly by the side of the road until her car entered the Runze Park... When he looked at the white body hidden in the depths of his sight, he couldn''t help laughing at himself. "Since Gu Beichen''s marriage makes you so tired, why don''t you try to get out?" Su Junli''s murmuring voice echoed in the narrow space in the car, showing helplessness. He sighed, looked back, started the car, and then left However, when his car slid through the gate of Runze Park, a black Maybach turned from the corner and drove into Runze park. The car stopped in the underground parking lot, Gu Beichen opened the door and got off, and then walked to the elevator with one hand Pressing the number on the top floor, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone rang just as the elevator door slid past with a "crash". He took it out, looked at the call, slightly frowned, indifferently picked it up and put it in his ear, "second sister!" "Beichen, I''ll think about it..." Gu Yuan''s voice came from the other side with some arrogance. "The shares are left to me by my father. Anyway, even if you want to fulfill my grandfather''s wish, there''s no reason for me to give up." Gu Beichen is not surprised by this result... After all, the split of shares in those years involved a lot. Now he knows very well that it is impossible for him to really close them all. "This is the second sister''s decision?" Gu Beichen said softly, but there was no emotion in his voice. Gu Yuan said, "well," but anyway, we are brothers and sisters. I won''t stand on the side of outsiders. " Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently hooked a sneering arc. Mo Tong looked at the rising number of the elevator and slowly said, "it''s so best..." at the same time, the elevator had reached the top floor. He walked out while the door was open. "There''s nothing else for the second sister, so I''ll hang up." Before Gu Yuan could speak, Gu Beichen had already hung up. Press the code lock and the door opens with a click. Gu Beichen went in. After looking around, the eagle finally looked up at Jian Mo who had just come out of the kitchen with two ice spoons Jane Mo didn''t expect Gu Beichen to come back. She was stunned and forgot her reaction. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, first slipped over Jian Mo''s red and swollen eyes, then glanced at the spoon she was holding in her hand, and then looked at her, "have you cried?" There was affirmation in the light voice. Jane Mo reacted and subconsciously hid the spoon behind her, but she felt that her behavior was too ridiculous and wanted to cover it up. Without explanation, Jane Mo just changed the topic, "how did you... Come back?" "I can''t come back?" Gu Beichen hissed coldly, changed his slippers and walked to Jian mo. Jian Mo subconsciously retreated, and Gu Beichen kept walking, so they approached... As soon as they entered and retreated, the atmosphere gradually became strange. "Ah --" Suddenly, Jane Mo''s heel suddenly hit something. Before she could react, the whole person had fallen back Gu Beichen frowned slightly at Jian Mo and stepped forward with an arrow. When Jian Mo was about to have a close contact with the floor, she grabbed her waist... Then she threw herself on his chest because of inertia. "Hmm..." Jian Mo''s nose bumped against Gu Beichen''s solid chest, and she couldn''t help humming. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep. He opened the simple foam, and asked in a cold voice: "have you done something wrong?" "No!" Jane answered instinctively. "Really?" Gu Beichen whispered softly, and the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly at the right time, and two sharp rays from the bottom of his eyes seemed to penetrate the essence of Jian mo. Jane Mo pursed her lips, raised her eyebrows with a fake smile and asked, "husband... Did you come back tonight to interrogate me about what I was doing behind your back?" She came forward and hooked Gu Beichen''s neck, stood on tiptoe and pecked on his cheek, "or... Come back and talk about divorce with me?" Jane Mo gently fanned the innocent eyes. Even though the pain was severe, she still showed a face that didn''t matter... Even if, in fact, her face was very stiff. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and resented the performance of Jian Mo''s "easy retraction and release". As soon as he tore away Jane Mo, Gu Beichen snorted coldly, "so want a divorce?" Jane was stunned, then smiled and said, "doesn''t her husband want to divorce me?" The rhetorical question made Gu Beichen''s heart suddenly blocked up. He looked at Jian Mo coldly and wanted to see how much she thought about this matter Unfortunately, Jane Mo is used to camouflage in front of him... So that what he sees at the bottom of her eyes is nothing but nothing! Gu Beichen turned around and took off his suit jacket as he walked. He was about to throw it on the sofa... Suddenly, his action stagnated in the middle. Jane Mo didn''t react at first, then she was surprised, stared wide, and subconsciously ran over... On the sofa, Su Jun was lying there with a big stab in her suit coat! Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently hooked up the sneer and looked at Jian Mo, "it seems... It''s not a joke!" Jane Mo''s heart ''cluttered'' and wanted to explain, but at the thought of that she was so fragile because she met Shen Chu at night, she swallowed it again when she got to her mouth Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s eagle eyes and narrowed slightly. His voice opened without any tone and asked, "whose?" Chapter 145 Jian Mo looked at the suit coat on the sofa, then looked at Gu Beichen, slightly sipped the lower lip corner and said, "man''s..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed in an instant. A pair of ink pupils shot two cold and sharp lights. He looked at Jian Mo, and one side of his thin lip gently hooked a cold hiss, "you can see..." he snorted coldly, "Jian Mo, you seem to have forgotten that we haven''t divorced yet!" Jian Mo''s explanation made Gu Beichen angry. Due to the problems of the bridge across Donghai city and Nanhai City, he was busy dealing with them and had no leisure... But even so, after working overtime, he drove to Runze Park unconsciously. Hehe, he didn''t go back to the villa in the middle of the mountain. He didn''t go to lanze garden without her... He came to Runze garden eagerly and saw what? Jian Mo was chilly in her heart. She was as proud as she looked at Gu Beichen''s sarcasm. She even felt dazzling, "anyway, it''s sooner or later..." her tone sounded indifferent. "So..." the sneer on Gu Beichen''s thin lips became more and more obvious, "... Have you found your next home?" Jane Mo''s heart suddenly suffocated, as if she had been hit hard. She raised her eyebrows, even though she was dying of pain in her heart, but her face wore the disguise she had been used to for two years. "What should I do? I can''t wait for you to kick me. I''m looking for it?" Jane Mo smiled heartlessly, and even joked in her voice, "I''m really afraid I''ll not get used to it after two years of good life." Jian Mo feels that she is looking for cheap. Obviously, because of Shen Chu''s words and the things designed by the club have been humble to the dust, but she still looks arrogant However, even if it is ridiculous, she doesn''t want to bow her head in the relationship between Gu Beichen and Shen Chu! Gu Beichen stepped forward with an arrow and grabbed Jian Mo''s arm, which was a spin. He had put her against the wall column, "as if... You are looking forward to divorce me?" Chu Zixiao''s words immediately echoed in Gu Beichen''s mind... Arrogant turn around? Hehe, it''s really good... Use Zixiao to achieve your goal, Jane Mo, you''re really good! Jian Mo''s arm was pained by Gu Beichen''s strong grasp, but she stubbornly didn''t say a word. She just slightly picked her chin, smiled more and more frivolously and said, "what do you mean I''m looking forward to? Doesn''t my husband think so?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly at Jian Mo''s clear eyes, but because they were too clear, he couldn''t understand her mood Jane Mo continued to laugh indifferently. "Shen Chu is back. Does her husband want her to do" in fact, the picture is not clear... "Mo Xiaoya said with her arms around her chest." however, everyone in the company can see that white Hyundai is your car... Here, "she pointed to the license plate with her fingers." although there is a problem with the angle, the numbers in front of the license plate are the same as yours. " "It was an accident last night..." Jane Mo explained weakly. Xiang night stared at Jian Mo''s red and swollen eyes, "sister Mo, it won''t be su Junli bullying you... So you''re crying, and then he''s... Huh?" "You think you write novels?" Jane Mo glanced angrily, and then looked at the newspaper. Her face was a little gloomy. "Did you read the morning paper?" Ding Dang entered the design department with a newspaper in his hand. "I just got on the elevator, and people in other departments of the company said that the design of the concert hall where Mo Mo got Su Junli was handed over by meat..." Ding Dang''s words were swallowed back at the moment of seeing Jian Mo, "Mo Mo!" "These media that look at pictures and talk are really enough!" Mo Xiaoya gritted her teeth angrily and said, "how can everything be so unbearable by what they say?" Jane Mo smiled with self mockery, "how much can you control if you put your mouth on others?" With that, she stuffed the newspaper back to Xiangwan, and then went to her office. You can get the design of the emperor club by the hidden rules. Are you afraid that others say she gets the design right of Adrian concert hall by the hidden rules? Jane Mo mockingly hooked the lower lip corner, as if she was unable to deal with and explain such gossip Chapter 146 "Start emergency public relations," Gu Beichen looked at Li Tianyu indifferently, "the rectification of bridge design drawings shall be approved by relevant departments as soon as possible... The meeting shall end!" After that, he got up and walked to the meeting room without any stop. After a busy morning, the bridge collapse across Donghai city and Nanhai city was finally handled properly. Gu Beichen walked to the elevator with one hand and Xiao Jing followed him. He always felt that Chen Shao exuded the breath of strangers from top to bottom since he saw him in the morning. The staff continued to walk obliquely along the way. Suddenly, Gu Beichen stopped. When the two female employees mentioned their voices and eyes because they were nervous, they looked at them... Then, their eyes dropped slightly, and the eagle''s eyes fell on the newspaper held by the female employee on her back. Gu Beichen raised his hand slightly, and the female employee secretly wailed that she shouldn''t be reading newspapers in the corridor... Now, she was caught reading gossip. Xiao Jing is the person who has been with Gu Beichen for a long time. Without command, he stepped forward and pulled the newspaper in the female employee''s hand. He subconsciously looked at it first... Just one eye. He couldn''t help but stare in amazement. Looking at the car transformed by him, Xiao Jing already knows who the heroine is without even reading the content... Not to mention Chen Shao? Before there was time to respond, the newspaper in Xiao Jing''s hand had been taken away by Gu Beichen Tut Tut, that sensational title... It''s really exciting! Xiao Jing grinned secretly, feeling the treachery that pervaded Gu Beichen, and even the feeling that wind and rain were coming. The female employee''s heart was almost unable to breathe because of the pressure of the gradually condensing air around her. When she was afraid of being dealt with because of watching gossip, Gu Beichen took a step away The female employee breathed a sigh and looked at Gu Beichen''s back with some doubts... Is the president also interested in gossip? She thought like this. She looked at another female employee around her and was surprised. She didn''t know how to respond. Xiao Jing stood in the corner of the elevator and silently watched Gu Beichen''s reaction... Unfortunately, he couldn''t see any expression on Chen Shao''s indifferent face, but the frozen air in the car was crushing his heart. A "Ding" came and the elevator reached the top floor. At the moment when the elevator door opened, Gu Beichen took the lead in walking out "Chen Shao, Li Shao is waiting for you in the office!" Susan came forward and said. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered coldly and walked towards the office. Susan felt Gu Beichen''s gloomier breath than in the morning. When he got to the office, she looked at Xiao Jing and asked, "isn''t the meeting going well?" Xiao Jing shrugged and shook his head. "When you go down to lunch later, you can pay attention to the gossip talked about by the female staff in the restaurant..." "Huh?" Susan raised her eyebrows lightly. Xiao Jing looked at the direction of the office and said in a low voice, "Miss Jane and Su Jun were photographed together last night... The title is very hot!" Susan twitched uncontrollably at the corners of her mouth and subconsciously looked at the president''s office, "tut Tut, Chen Shao, is this... Jealous?" "I think so!" In the office, Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen with a faint smile from the corners of his mouth. "Who owes you tens of billions?" Then, with sharp eyes, he saw the newspaper in Gu Beichen''s hand. Get up and drag the newspaper over Li Yunze looked at the report on the front page and didn''t find anything. "When did you gossip like this..." he said, his voice suddenly stagnated and looked at Gu Beichen with doubts. "Is it Jian Mo?" Although it is a question, it can be seen that Gu Beichen''s cold face, he has affirmed it. "Tut Tut," said Li Yunze, shaking his head and joking, "is he wearing a green hat?" With a brush, Gu Beichen''s fierce eyes shot at Li Yunze like two knives. Li Yunze shrugged and continued to tease: "just... When Shen Chu came back, you two haven''t spread a lot of gossip these days. It''s Fair for Jane Mo to do this..." he raised his eyebrows. "But then again... You''re not going to divorce Jane Mo? Just hang Shen Chu like this?" Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was immediately covered with haze. "Recently, you seem to be very concerned about when Jane Mo and I will divorce?" "Well, don''t you divorce?" Li Yunze asked. Gu Beichen immediately frowned and became more and more disgusted with this problem Li Yunze deeply coagulated Gu Beichen and asked after a while: "I said... You don''t really have a mind for Jian Mo?" Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze and wanted to refute, but he couldn''t say what he said. "You are really moved by Jane Mo!" Li Yunze immediately sat upright and said with a smile, "what about Shen Chu?" Before Gu Beichen could answer, Li Yunze said again, "seriously, if you are really moved by Shen Chu, I advise you to really think about it... Don''t wait for divorce and regret it later." Gu Beichen looked at the newspaper placed on the desk with a slightly cold eye. What he thought was nothing else. It was all the suit and coat on the sofa last night Now it''s obvious that Su Jun left! Thinking of this, Jian Mo''s attitude immediately blocked Gu Beichen, as if there was an air plug in the heart. "I don''t know if I''m moved or used to her..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is deep. "Xiaochu''er is back. I can''t let her be said to be a third party. However, it seems that I''m not so positive about the divorce with Jane mo." "As for Shen Chu..." Li Yunze shrugged and said, "have you ever thought about her? In fact, Jane Morse is really a good woman. She has been married to you for at least two years, and she never does anything because she is your wife..." Li Yunze leaned back on the seat again. "I don''t want to divorce. I''ll be very angry to see that Jane Mo has an affair with other men... Beichen, you''re moving!" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but Junyan showed a touch of complex emotion... Just because when Li Yunze said he was moved, his heart affirmed the answer. "However, if you think more about Shen Chu''s thoughts, it''s better to divorce Jian Mo as soon as possible, and the province will hurt others and yourself..." Li Yunze picked up the newspaper again. "Besides, don''t delay others'' future." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and said coldly, "I''m Gu Beichen''s woman. What do others miss?" "But you have to keep this woman..." Li Yunze said in tears and laughter. Gu Beichen was choked by Li Yunze again. He didn''t know how to answer. He couldn''t help but get the ink pupil deeper. Shen Chu stood at the door, his hand slightly raised in the air, looking at Gu Beichen''s side face through the open door, and his hand gradually clenched up Suddenly, Gu Beichen suddenly raised his eyes and looked at the door... Just in front of Shen Chu''s line of sight. Chapter 147 Shen Chu smiled and tapped on the door of the office, then pushed it open, as if he didn''t hear anything and walked in. "Just passing by here, I''ll come to you for dinner when it''s noon..." said Shen Chu, looking at Li Yunze again, "Yunze is also here. Let''s go together?" Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen and saw that Shen Chu was nothing different. Without much thought, he said, "you don''t mind if I become a light bulb, I don''t mind..." "We''ve known each other for so many years. What do you mind?" Shen Chu said with an elegant smile. "Forget it..." Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen, and then said with an evil smile, "I''d better be conscious. The provincial beauty Shen said I didn''t look." With that, Li Yunze put down his overlapping legs and got up, and took the newspaper into his hand. "I''ll go first. There''s an operation in the afternoon... Call back." He came here to talk about the south, but now he feels that Beichen is more tangled than the south? Alas... Love is such a difficult chess game! Li Yunze thought in his heart. At the same time, he nodded with Shen Chu and left "When did you come here?" Gu Beichen looked at Shen Chu and asked. Shen Chu smiled. "I just came up and came directly when I saw Xiao Jing and they weren''t there..." she said, with a sly smile on her mouth. "I wanted to eavesdrop on what you said. Who knows that you found the talent when he stood at the door." Gu Beichen''s thin lips slightly hooked an arc like nothing, and asked "what do you want to eat?" "How about the daily material?" Shen Chu suggested. "Good!" Gu Beichen doesn''t pay much attention to what he eats. Sometimes he gets busy and can eat on time. As soon as Gu Beichen and Shen Chu got to the elevator, they saw Xiao Jing coming out with a lunch box. He said calmly, "the one thirty meeting was postponed." "Yes!" Xiao Jing answered and watched Gu Beichen and Shen Chu enter the elevator. He didn''t shake his head with a long sigh until the elevator door was closed. "My Chen Shao, alas, I was still dejected by Jian Mo at the moment before, and I will fly together with Shen Chu at the next moment. Is that really good?" Xiao Jing looks at the lunch box in her hand, tilts her lips, and sends a text message to Susan saying that he won''t go to the restaurant if he eats Chen Shao''s... As for gossip, let her take a good look at it when she listens to others'' discussion, so as to combine Chen Shao''s resentment this morning. Celebrities often don''t have much privacy, and the public seems to be curious about everything about them Su Junli didn''t expect to be photographed yesterday. Looking at the newspaper in front of him, he said with some headache: "Grandpa, how many things that gossip newspapers say are true?" Su Zhenqi said calmly, "who is this girl?" Su Junli picked up the newspaper and looked at it. Jane Mo could not be seen on it, but their cars were in the mirror, "just one friend!" "Hum!" Su Zhen snorted coldly, "friend? I think it''s someone else''s wife!" "..." Su Jun twitched from the corner of his mouth, neither explaining nor arguing. Su Zhenqi didn''t get angry when he saw him like this. "Is it Jian Mo?" He asked, seeing that Su Jun was still silent, he couldn''t wait to pick up the cup in front of him and throw it over, "she is Gu Beichen''s wife now. Do you want to kill me?" Su Junli sighed, "Grandpa, Momo and I are friends now..." he saw Su Zhenqi stare and simply said, "besides, her marriage with Gu Beichen won''t last long." "Oh, it won''t last long. What''s the matter?" Su Zhenqi asked with a sneer. "Divorced, I''m going to chase her!" Su Junli said seriously, "I''m not because of what happened when I was a child. I just think she''s worth having..." after a pause, he said seriously, "Grandpa, I want her!" Su Zhenqi looked at Su Junli seriously and was so angry that his hands trembled I don''t look down on Jian Mo''s divorce, but his grandson is his pride. Why can''t he marry a divorced woman? What do you want the outside world to see? Seeing Su Zhenqi''s appearance, Su Junli had guessed what grandpa thought. He sighed quietly and said, "Grandpa, Momo and Gu Beichen are secretly married. I''m afraid even if they divorce, the people who know are only the people around them. If you worry about this, it''s not enough to hinder me from chasing her after Momo''s divorce." Su Jun got up, took the newspaper and read it again. Just then he said, "I''ll see the progress of the concert hall..." he looked at Su Zhenqi deeply, expressed his firmness, and turned away. Su Zhenqi twitched at the corners of his mouth for several times. Finally, he was so angry that he lay back on the sofa and waited for Su Jun to leave... But he couldn''t say anything. After all, Jian Mo and Gu Beichen haven''t divorced yet. It''s a little early for him to worry about it! After leaving the Su family manor, Su Jun dialed Jian Mo, "did the report bother you?" "No..." Jane Mo said duplicity, "I can''t see my person again!" Su Jun had heard the clue from Jian Mo''s tone, but she didn''t want him to know. He had to pretend to believe, "that''s good!" He paused and said, "if..." "Jian Mo, Mr. Yu asked you to find him right away!" At that time, a voice came over the phone and interrupted Su Junli''s words. "OK, I''ll be right there!" Jane Mo answered and said to Su Junli, "I..." "Go ahead and get busy!" Su Jun said thoughtfully, "I''ll talk about it later." "Well, bye!" After Jane Mo hung up the phone, she went to Yu Ziyun''s office. After Jian Mo went to find Yu Ziyun for a while, the sour and jealous voices of several women from other departments came from Xiangyu''s bathroom "Tut Tut, look at others... It''s good to look good." "Yes... It can not only have an affair with Su Junli, but also make Chu Zixiao bow down for her... I''m not sure. She''s also in the bed of the emperor''s president!" "I don''t think Mr. Yu has escaped... Look, how special Mr. Yu is to Jane Mo these days? He always calls her to his office!" "During the noon break, Mr. Yu asked Jian Mo to go right away... Ha ha, I can''t help it. Would you like to have a shot first?" Suddenly, several women laughed wickedly. "I think it is..." "I think you are cheap!" Mo Xiaoya came out of the lattice in a queen''s style and looked at several women who were mending their makeup and breaking their mouths. "Don''t feel like others are like you all day long because you don''t have the ability!" With a cold sneer, she despised several women, washed her hands and went out of the bathroom. Several women turned their eyes with disdain, and some even hummed, "if you have the face to do it, you won''t let others say..." "In other words," suddenly, a woman asked with serious doubts on her face, "what did president Yu call Jian Mo for this noon? I''ve never seen president Yu call people during his break when the company didn''t have a big project?" Chapter 148 Jian Mo listened to Yu Ziyun''s words, his eyes were full of excited light, "Mr. Yu, is it true?" Yu Ziyun nodded with a smile, picked his eyebrow and said, "can this deceive you?" If there''s someone in Xiangyu''s drawer, he''ll give it to you, too Jian Mo took the folder and opened it, which is the application for UCL new year admission "Tuition... The company pays!" Yu Ziyun said, "there is a basic minimum wage every month, but every finished product designed has the same Commission and dividend as the shift." Jian Mo looked up at Yu Ziyun and stared in surprise, "Mr. Yu, this... Seems to be against the rules." Yu Ziyun smiled, "I set the rules. What''s the difference?" After a pause, he continued, "Jane Mo, although the scale of our company can not be compared with them, I am confident to become a top architectural design company... Are you willing to witness the growth of the company with me?" Jian Mo''s nose was suddenly sour, although she knew... A large part of Yu Ziyun''s reason was that she wanted to play emotion cards. However, for Jian Mo, who still has a 13-year contract with the company itself, he offered such attractive terms, there is no doubt... The fundamental reason is no longer important. Jian Mo didn''t answer, but looked at Yu Ziyun Yu Ziyun thought that Jian Mo was hesitating about many follow-up problems. He smiled and said, "I am a generous person, especially loyal and attentive to the company." He paused and then said, "the company will definitely be listed in the future... Jane Mo, as long as you have the ability, the shareholder of the company will have your place!" "Mr. Yu, I didn''t think so much." Jian Mo knows that Yu Ziyun misunderstood, "this is my first company. I like the working atmosphere here... If I can, I also hope to witness the growth of the company." Yu Ziyun smiled, got up and stretched out his hand, "Welcome!" Jian Mo also got up, shook hands with Yu Ziyun, took the application form out of the office... Outside, she couldn''t believe that happiness came so suddenly! Jane Mo didn''t go back to the office, but went to the roof of the building It''s late autumn now, because it rained last night. Although it''s sunny today, the air is still wet and cold. Jane Mo hugged the application on her chest, looked up slightly at the sun and took a deep breath... The joy gradually spread in her heart dispelled the depression of these days in an instant. Suppressing her inner excitement, Jian Mo took out her mobile phone and dialed Li Xiaoyue. While waiting, she even couldn''t control her lips. "Girl?" "Xiaoyue, I got the application..." Jian Mo said in a depressed voice while Li Xiaoyue spoke. Li Xiaoyue was stunned at first, and then asked, "UCL?" "Yes!" Li Xiaoyue immediately smiled, "girl, congratulations... Finally as usual!" "Yes..." Jane Mo smiled and bit her lower lip. "Xiao Yue, even if I can''t go in the end, I''m happy!" "What nonsense? You can go!" Li Xiaoyue rolled her eyes and said, "girl, that''s your childhood dream... No matter how difficult it is, you have to go!" Jane Mo''s nose was sour for a moment. After excitement, the problem she needs to face is not money, but her mother''s condition If she finally decides to go to UCL to study architectural design, she will take her mother with her... It''s best if she can have a suitable heart source before. However, even if she doesn''t, she won''t leave her mother alone in Los Angeles. Li Xiaoyue knew what Jian Mo was worried about. She comforted and said, "when the boat comes to the bridge, it will be straight... Girl, I think I can''t get through that. Isn''t it the last time?" Jane Mo''s nose is more sour When a friend is willing to comfort you with his pain, why don''t you face it. "I''ll try my best..." Jane Mo said with a smile. "I won''t give up easily!" After hanging up the phone, Jian Mo looked at the folder in her hand, then turned down the roof with a smile... Just entered the staircase, the mobile phone uploaded the prompt sound of pushing the message. Because of her beautiful mood, Jane Mo took her mobile phone and cut off the news However, when she saw the news headline and the photo of Gu Beichen opening the door to Shen Chu, her beautiful mood suddenly became gloomy. Shen Chu likes to eat Japanese food, but she doesn''t like sashimi... It should be said that she doesn''t like everything that is raw. "You didn''t seem to like mustard before?" Seeing that Gu Beichen had made a lot of mustard in the dish, Shen Chu couldn''t help asking. Gu Beichen took a look at the green mustard on the plate and frowned slightly Jian Mo is very good at cooking. Chinese food, Western food or Japanese ingredients seem to be very good. Sometimes she makes sushi and salmon at home... She makes a lot of mustard every time. She says it''s fun to eat like that. But after several unexpected experiences, he habitually made her a lot of mustard? Slightly frowned, Gu Beichen said without much look on his cold face: "I just thought about the company, but I didn''t pay attention." With that, he changed a small dish and made mustard again. Shen Chu didn''t care, but casually asked, "has the company done a lot lately?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, and Mo Tong Shen Chu took a look at Shen Chu with a strange emotion, but that emotion was fleeting, "JK''s affair and the emperor''s anniversary are coming, the bridge across the East China Sea and the South China Sea..." When talking about JK, Shen Chu''s heart stagnated, but he recovered in an instant, "unfortunately, I can''t help you." Gu Beichen looked at Shen Chu with deep eyes, "I want to buy JK, Xiaochu, do you mind?" Shen Chu pulled at the corners of his mouth and asked with some self mockery, "do you mind if you don''t buy it?" She smiled and felt desolate. "Besides, my father doesn''t need me to take care of JK." Gu Beichen astringed his eyes and put the sushi that Shen Chu liked into her plate, "it''s best if you don''t participate..." "What?" Shen Chu deliberately asked, "are you afraid you can''t do it?" Gu Beichen looked at Shen Chu again. The ink pupil was as deep as a black pool, which made people unable to see to the end, "what if... I said yes?" Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen, and his eyes immediately turned red. "I won''t be your burden..." she said, with a thin layer of water mist on the bottom of her eyes, "just like five years ago, I won''t!" Five years ago, "Gu Beiguang?" He said softly, then his mind turned slightly and asked, "do you mean... Five years ago, you left because of me?" Chapter 149 Shen Chu''s pupil widened, and then he wanted to cover up his subconscious mind, which seemed to be seen through his mind, and wanted to serve tea. However, because he was too flustered, he accidentally knocked over the tea. "Ah", Shen Chu shouted softly, and then hurried to take his napkin to wipe it Gu Beichen looked at Shen Chu''s action with deep eyes. One side of his thin lip closed gently. His cold face was full of doubts, "Xiaochu son?" He asked again with a faint sigh. "Five years ago... Of course I left for your reasons!" Shen Chu said with a ha ha, "I''m sorry that I just knocked over the teacup." do you want to prove that you''ll give me up? " Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gradually became deep and bottomless. He narrowed slightly and then recovered his calm, "eat." Shen Chu pursed his lower lip and nodded with a complicated look. The two were silent, and they talked with each other Gu Beichen is a person who doesn''t talk much. Shen Chu seems to be avoiding something and doesn''t talk much... She makes Gu Beichen more confused. "I''ll take you back." After lunch, Gu Beichen said. Shen Chu shook his head. "My car is parked downstairs. I''ll go to the emperor with you." Gu Beichen didn''t say anything more. He carried Shen Chu back to the Emperor As it is noon, the traffic flow on the roads in Los Angeles is relatively not congested. When waiting for the traffic lights, the radio is just putting advertisements for the emperor''s club. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, and he thought of Jian Mo''s helpless and flattering appearance of "doing everything for him" in order to take a back door to participate in the draft comparison. On one side of his thin lip, he put on an unknowingly comfortable smile. Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen''s smile, and his heart sank subconsciously. Then he covered his mind with a smile and said, "I overheard that day... Jian Mo''s design was also selected?" Gu Beichen glanced at Shen Chu, and said faintly, "Hmm!" Shen Chu didn''t seem to mind, "suddenly thought of when we were at the University of London..." she laughed at herself, "I haven''t touched the design for several years." Gu Beichen looked at Shen Chu again, and then started the car when the green light was on. "Next time I have a chance, do you mind if I submit my work?" Shen Chu half joked. "The emperor speaks by strength," Gu Beichen said calmly. "You came out of UCL, but you haven''t touched the architectural design for several years. You''re not afraid of the gap brought by losing the election. Naturally, you can try." Shen Chu moved back and forth at the corners of his mouth, raised his eyebrows and asked, "what about Jane Mo?" She pursed her lower lip. "Is it also based on strength?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and invisibly, "I said, the emperor speaks by strength!" Shen Chu didn''t say anything more, but there was a strange emotion in her heart... She lowered her eyes and smiled at herself, "yes, strength... Five years ago, I was also a strong person." Gu Beichen''s eyes were suddenly deep. He glanced at Shen Chu and saw the loneliness on her face. His convergent eyes looked forward No one spoke, and the narrow space in the carriage gradually became dignified. What is the source of Shen Chu''s silence? Gu Beichen doesn''t know, but Gu Beichen himself knows very well that he had a tree bud with his heart when Shen Chu left five years ago. If he doesn''t find the result, he will scratch his heart and liver. When the car stopped at the emperor, Shen Chu smiled and said, "I''ll go first..." as she spoke, she laughed at herself at the bottom of her eyes and turned to open the door. Gu Beichen looked at Shen Chu''s actions. He didn''t hold her until the door was opened Shen Chu turned back and looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously. "Xiaochu''er, some things can''t go back, but some things won''t be easily lost..." Gu Beichen said with deep eyes, "just..." "No, just!" Shen Chu pursed his lips and interrupted Gu Beichen. "Beichen, I don''t want to compare with Jian mo. just, maybe as you said, five years has changed too much... Whether you still love me or not, Jian Mo is your wife now." Saying this, Shen Chu''s eyes turned red, "but do you know, five years ago I..." Shen Chu suddenly stopped talking. Gu Beichen looked at her tightly and waited for her to go on. Unfortunately, Shen Chu just swallowed the rest of his words with self mockery, and then said, "I had my reason five years ago, but can''t I find the lost five years?" After asking, Shen Chu took a deep breath, swallowed the moisture dense in the fundus of his eyes, then pulled back his arm and got out of the car without hesitation. Gu Beichen looked at the back of Shen Chu''s arrogant departure, and his cold, carved face was dark From then on, Shen Chu inadvertently leaked his words, and then to this moment, Gu Beichen''s doubts became deeper and deeper. "Hello, president!" The front desk saw Gu Beichen come in and quickly got up to salute. Gu Beichen just nodded casually and went to the exclusive elevator without stopping. The front desk looked at Gu Beichen''s back in doubt, and then said to another front desk: "Shanshan, is that woman the one you said before... The one the president held her hand?" Zhao Shanshan looked outside and there was no figure of Shen Chu, "no..." "Eh, I think the president is also very special about this!" Zhao Shanshan looked at her puzzled and heard her say, "when did the president drive a woman himself?" "Yes..." Zhao Shanshan answered suspiciously and frowned. However, the president told her not to come to work that day, but later she got a salary increase... According to Xiao tezhu, it was the "delivery man" who begged. The president has always said one thing and one thing. Who in the whole group doesn''t know that what the president said will never change? But I changed it for that woman... Isn''t it very special? Zhao Shanshan sat down in doubt. When she looked down, she just saw the roster designed by the 18 clubs. She couldn''t help falling on the name of the designer on the 18th floor - Jian mo. Because she was able to apply to go to UCL, Jane Mo felt as bright as the sunshine outside all afternoon. After work, she drove back to runzeyuan and went to Yashu hospital. Jane Mo first went to Dr. Wang and asked about Sumer. It was basically the same as what she knew last time. If she couldn''t find a suitable heart source, it would cause some negative chain reactions. "Mom," Jane Mo said as she wiped Sumer''s body, "you know what? I can apply to UCL... Dad said before that I can go there to study architectural design. I''m about to realize my wish." Jane Mo smiled in her mouth, but there was hidden sadness in her eyes. "So, you must get better... So you can go with me. Didn''t you say you wanted to see what the school I yearned for is like?" Speaking of this, Jane Mo''s nose is sour without control For two years, my mother was calm every day. She didn''t know if she could believe it... What if there was no suitable heart source? The cell phone ring suddenly came, interrupting Jane Mo''s sadness. She took out her cell phone and looked at the incoming call. It was a strange number. With doubts, Jane Mo answered, "Hello, who?" "Jane is with me now," said the man''s dark voice on the phone. "If you don''t want him to die, bring 500000 to devil''s kiss to find me!" Chapter 150 Jane Mo was stunned for a few seconds before she reacted. Suddenly, her face was dark and said, "let him die!" Then she hung up angrily. However, just after hanging up the phone, Jane Mo''s hand holding the mobile phone began to tremble uncontrollably... In an instant, there was a sea of worries! Jane Mo looked down at her mobile phone and looked at the group of numbers she had just called. She wanted to dial to ask about Jane Chang, but where did she get 500000? Just when Jane Mo hesitated, the mobile phone rang. She was surprised and saw that the group of numbers just now Jane Mo looked at the call and clenched her teeth tightly. Just when the bell was about to stop, she picked it up and put it in her ear, "hello?" "An hour, if I can''t see 500000..." a cold humming voice came from the phone. "Jane Mo, Jane truss will not only be disabled, but I''m afraid I can''t keep my mouth tight that night two years ago." Jane Mo''s face turned white in an instant. "Who are you?" She asked eagerly, her voice trembling with fear. The other party snorted coldly, "who am I?" He smiled and said, "you were in my bed that night. Who did you say I was?" With a bang, a thunderbolt exploded in Jian Mo''s head. She widened her eyes unbelievably. This time... Her body trembled. Jane Mo just felt as if she had been evacuated. She stepped back powerlessly. Her eyelashes kept fanning uncontrollably, her mouth opened and closed, and she didn''t know what to say. She tried to forget the night two years ago, even when Jian Heng said the identity of each other, she tried not to think... But what is it now? "An hour..." the other party said coldly, "you don''t care about Jian Heng''s life and death, and your own reputation?" Jane Mo didn''t speak, but looked at the front with empty eyes Ear is the sound of mechanical heart rate instrument, which falls in Jian Mo''s heart with the drumstick, "I can''t get so much money in an hour." She clenched her gums. "Three days!" "Hum..." the other party snorted coldly, "one day, at most one day! I must see the money at this time tomorrow! Otherwise... Think about the consequences yourself!" When the other party finished, he didn''t give Jane Mo a chance to talk, so he hung up the phone. Jane Mo listened to the voice of "Dudu" hanging up from her mobile phone. She couldn''t respond for a long time. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen just finished today''s last meeting and entered the office with one hand "Chen Shao, Miss Lu man just called and asked you to have dinner!" Susan came in with a folder and said. "Push!" Gu Beichen gently lifted his thin lips and immediately took the signing pen and signed his name on the document. If I don''t sign the documents after work, Gu Beichen said, "if I don''t sign them first?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered. His slender finger left the upper reaches of the keyboard and opened the email sent to him by the Dragon owl, which contained the information about the recent acquisition of emperor''s loose shares by a foreign registered company. After reading all, Gu Beichen called Long Xiao, "at this speed, I''m afraid I don''t have complete control when my second uncle comes back." "You can get five percent of Chu Zixiao''s hand. There should be no problem." The Dragon owl said calmly. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "Jane Mo and I will divorce, but not because I want to get shares." The Dragon owl was silent. "Don''t you want this reason, or don''t you want a divorce?" "..." Gu Beichen''s eyebrows frowned tighter, and he was silent for a long time. He was weak and lay back on the seat, and said softly with thin lips, "I don''t want to divorce..." Long Xiao was not surprised by his answer. "Fortunately, even if you can''t get the shares in Chu Zixiao''s hand, he won''t stand on Gu mohuai''s side." Gu Beichen''s soft eyebrows and mood were a little confused. "Boss long, I''m a little confused." After a few seconds of silence, he continued, "I don''t know if I have a mind for Jane Mo, but I don''t want a divorce." "However, you can''t let Shen Chu go!" The Dragon owl spoke calmly. Gu Beichen was silent. "It''s better to talk to Jian Mo than you can''t make it here alone..." the Dragon owl calmly suggested. "In that way, maybe you will understand what your feelings for Jian Mo are. The feelings of Zoysia Qing for her will naturally be clear to Shen Chu." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered and hung up the phone with a tight line on his cold, carved face. Gu Beichen lowered his eyes, then opened the text message and looked at the text message between him and Jian Mo in the past two years... Unexpectedly, he could remember his state of mind when they sent each text message. Thinking about the words of the Dragon owl, Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, and his fingers slid quickly across the screen The sound of "Di" came, interrupting Jane Mo''s thoughts. Jian Mo''s mechanical eyes, looking at the lit mobile phone, delimiting the text message Mr. G: go back to Runze garden in the evening. Six words. If you ignore the location, this is the most text message Gu Beichen sent her! Jane Mo looked at it for a while, then astringently returned to the past: OK, husband... Waiting for you! Gu Beichen looked at the message replied by Jian Mo, which was obviously the same as before, but he burst into flowers inexplicably in his heart... Gorgeous made him a little impatient. Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen in the rearview mirror and felt that the smile on Gu Beichen''s mouth was a little cheap at the moment. After arriving at Runze Park, Xiao Jing parked his car in the parking space and looked at the white "modern" next to him. He always couldn''t help but feel sick. "Drive away," Gu Beichen said, opening the door. "Come and pick me up tomorrow." "Good!" Xiao Jing answered. When Gu Beichen went to the elevator entrance, he started the car and left. Looking at the rising number of the elevator, Gu Beichen frowned slightly and felt a little urgent, so that he felt that the floor was too high Press the password and enter the room. The eagle looks around... There is no figure of Jian mo. When the line of sight fell on the corridor leading to the bedroom, I heard something coming... I saw Jane Mo coming out in her skirt home clothes. "Come back so soon?" Jane Mo greeted her with a smile and a small run. "I just got home and didn''t have time to cook." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s charming and pleasing appearance. His eyes were deep, and his big palm asked her to rotate. He had put her against the wall, "it''s all right, ready-made food..." said. His ink pupil was deep and hot looking at Jian mo. Jane Mo smiled more and more charming. She put her arms around Gu Beichen''s neck and raised her eyebrows and said, "my husband has spiritual food, but I''m hungry!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips hooked up the evil spirit''s smile, and said in a low and magnetic ambiguity: "it''s all right, you can eat me." Words fall, he has some thunder hook fire, feeling difficult to help but bend over and kiss Jane mo Chapter 151 Obviously, he wants to come back to find Jian Mo to "talk about his heart", but just like the behavior of going home every time in the past two years, at the moment of seeing her charming, his body is even more anxious than his heart. They moved each other enthusiastically, as if they had forgotten the unhappiness of last night, and there was no news and telephone threat today... They didn''t even go to the bedroom, and directly sounded the war in place Jian Mo hung limply on Gu Beichen''s body. The soft breath spread on his neck because of breathing. It was crisp and numb, which made Gu Beichen''s just calm mood a little uncontrollable. In addition, Jane Mo had also caught her mind. After a while, Gu Beichen didn''t bear it in the end and directly picked Jane Mo up and went back to the bedroom. Then I ate her inside and outside "Today is so enthusiastic..." Gu Beichen said, "is there something wrong?" Jane Mo is obviously very active today! Generally, when she takes the initiative, she basically comes to him for something. "I''m enthusiastic, isn''t it good?" Jian Mo''s lips curled and her small hands were uneasy on Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen listened to her soft voice and smiled at the corners of his mouth... Anyway, he was comfortable and relaxed with Jane mo. It seems that she can always make him happy. "I''ll give you one last chance," Gu Beichen said, his eyes slightly deep. "If you don''t say, you won''t have a chance!" Jian Mo''s heart sank and pursed her lips. Even her restless hands on Gu Beichen subconsciously stopped, "husband, can you give me 500000?" "Half a million?" Gu Beichen said softly. Jane Mo couldn''t see under Gu Beichen''s eyes. She laughed at herself on her face, "well, 500000..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and the words of the Dragon owl slipped through his mind. Then he asked, "Jian Mo, is it only when you ask me that you will take the initiative?" Jane Mo pressed down all the emotions in her heart, lifted her body with a smile on her hypocritical face, fanned her eyes innocently, looked at Gu Beichen and asked, "what else?" "It won''t be because..." Gu Beichen''s eyes deeply and tightly grabbed Jian Mo, and didn''t let go of any of her expressions, "... Me?" Jane Mo smiled and said, "husband, don''t tease me... I married you for money, and I only want money. Do you think I like your people? Isn''t that asking for trouble?" Gu Beichen''s sideburns moved slightly, but there was no superfluous expression on his face. He just scratched a dangerous smile on his thin lips, "also..." he paused, "then you should be more enthusiastic... 500000, I''m tired of writing a check!" Jane Mo disguises well, which is entirely due to the muscular reaction in the face of Gu Beichen''s hypocrisy every time in the past two years... Even if Gu Beichen has sharp eyes, she can''t see the illusion of her now. "Should I work harder and you draw more zeros?" Jane Mo smiled and asked jokingly. "Can Beichen make me feel a little happy..." Jane Mo secretly bit her teeth, then leaned over and kissed Gu Beichen''s Adam''s apple Gu Beichen is sensitive and familiar with her. Naturally, she will not be strange. Gu Beichen let Jian Mo move, but his heart sank more and more... He shouldn''t come back to talk about his heart! At the moment, his arrogance, under the performance of Jane morna''s love for money, did not allow him to talk about his heart. The night is long, but for a man who expects too much and loses more, he obviously feels that there is not enough time Crush each other''s enthusiasm and get what they need... That''s all. Jane Mo just feels like she''s in heaven and hell... Doing the work of a senior J woman, but she wants to wash her soul. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and fierce, like ink space, vast and boundless. Just when Jian Mo was about to be unable to bear his attack, he whispered in her ear, "Jian Mo, in addition to money... Do you have a heart?" Jian Mo was confused by Gu Beichen. Before he could sort out his questions, he had been distracted by the final sprint Finally, Jane Mo didn''t know when she fell asleep, but her thoughts stagnated. Gu Beichen seemed to say something to her? The next day, Jian Mo was awakened by the biological clock and didn''t wake up in Gu Beichen''s arms as usual. At that moment, her heart suddenly fell empty. He sat up with his body about to fall apart, and Jane Mo''s line of sight drifted away without focus Suddenly, she was stunned, and then turned her head to the bedside table... She saw the paper pressed under the water cup. Jane Mo leaned over, took away the water cup and took out the paper. She heard a "pop" and something fell on the floor. Seeing that it was a bank card, Jane Mo frowned, picked it up, looked through it, and then went to see what was written on the paper ¡ª¡ªThe password of the supplementary card is our first meeting day. Jane Mo, you don''t need to please me if you want money in the future! When Jian Mo looked at this sentence, her heart suddenly hurt... The pain made her suffocate and block up. As if she could feel Gu Beichen''s anger when he wrote this sentence! With a self mocking smile, Jian Mo''s eyes fell on the bank card again In the past two years, Gu Beichen gave her living expenses every month, and she didn''t need to worry about everything at home. With a job, she didn''t think about the legendary subsidiary card, and he didn''t think about giving it. Now she is about to divorce... But she has a supplementary card with a password for the anniversary of the meeting! With a self mocking smile, Jian Mo suddenly frowned at Gu Beichen''s madness last night I don''t know why... According to reason, even if she deliberately forgot that night two years ago, but the black boss called her last night. She shouldn''t be able to do it calmly with Gu Beichen at night? Whether it''s his body or his heart? Jane Mo doesn''t understand herself President''s office of emperor group. Xiao Jing bought breakfast and brought it up. He was called to pick up Chen Shao early in the morning. Without the cheap sky last night, it was more dark and gloomy... He didn''t understand. Chen Shao used to come out relaxed and happy every time he came home. Why is he always gloomy recently? "Go and see where Sumer''s condition is?" Gu Beichen said in a hoarse voice, "if there is a shortage of funds, open a price setting account in the hospital." Eh Xiao Jing was a little surprised. He didn''t care last time. Is he going to take care of it this time? "OK, I''ll go to the hospital now." "Don''t let Jane Mo know at the hospital for the time being..." Gu Beichen ordered. "Hmm! I understand..." Xiao Jing answered and went out of the office. He just looked at Beichen when he was closing the door. Gu Beichen just got up and went to the French window. He looked at the dawn rising gradually with his hands in his pockets Jane Mo asked for money last time because of her mother''s illness. This time... Is it the same? Gu Beichen mocked himself on one side of his thin lips. He felt that Xiao Jing knew his mood at this moment and must secretly scold him. Chen Shao also has a cheap day! Turning around, Gu Beichen went to have breakfast There''s no need to talk with Jane Mo at all. He''s so clear now that he can''t let go! Chapter 152 "Excuse me, are you..." Dr. Wang looked at Xiao Jing and asked in some doubt. Xiao Jing smiled faintly, "I''m Miss Jane''s husband''s assistant!" As soon as Dr. Wang heard it, he suddenly said "Oh", but when he thought about it, he couldn''t help frowning, "little Jane is married? When did it happen?" "Ms. Wang took out the special account and asked the doctor to handle it for a while." then, if Ms. Wang had two special accounts, please give it to Ms. Wang Jingmo...... " Dr. Wang looked at it and his eyes couldn''t help brightening. "With this, little Jane doesn''t have to worry about Sumer''s medical expenses anymore..." he said happily, "little Jane married a good husband!" Xiao Jing smiled, "in addition, please keep doctor Wang confidential about this special fund..." "Why?" Dr. Wang was puzzled. Xiao Jing lied and said, "Miss Jane is preparing for UCL recently. In order to give her pressure, my boss doesn''t want her to relax because of this!" As soon as Dr. Wang heard this, he quickly nodded his head... Because he has been in contact with Jane Mo for a long time, and he has heard that she is an architectural designer and wants to go to UCL for further study. When Xiao Jing said this, Dr. Wang had no doubt at all and promised, "your boss has a heart... Don''t worry, I''ll handle this matter properly." "Trouble!" Xiao nodded, then turned and left the hospital. Back to the emperor and empress, Gu Beichen was holding a video conference... It was almost noon when he finished. "Chen Shao," said Xiao Jing, "Ms. Su''s condition has not improved recently. If she can''t find a suitable heart source, it may cause visceral failure. Because she can''t find a heart source... Therefore, Miss Jane''s living expenses and work are enough to bear the expenses of the hospital!" Gu Beichen frowned at the sword eyebrow in an instant, and a pair of eagle eyes gradually looked at Xiao Jing deeply. After several seconds, they recovered their calm... But in the dark, it was already choppy. Half a million is not paid to the hospital. What does Jane want that money for? "Chen Shao, do you need to find the heart source?" Xiao Jing inquired. Sumer''s current situation is in danger of delaying one day for another. However, relying solely on the way of the hospital is entirely a chance "Yes." Gu Beichen answered indifferently. Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen strangely. When his fierce eyes came over, he hurriedly pretended to be nothing and asked, "then I''ll go out first?" Gu Beichen didn''t even give him a "um" this time! After Xiao Jing went out, Gu Beichen got up and went to the wine cabinet, took out the wine and goblet, poured the cup, went to the French window and took a shallow SIP with one hand in his pocket The mellow red wine spread through the taste buds. It should be full of aroma, but he felt tasteless. I don''t know how good I feel. I know... Gu Beichen suddenly finds that Jian Mo only loves money and doesn''t feel about him. He''s very upset about it. When Mingming got married... This is what he wanted! Gu Beichen thought, a little agitated, and guessed what Jane Mo wanted the 500000 to do like a big boy in adolescence... The more he thought, the more crooked he thought, and finally felt that she had really "taken care of" xiaobailian with his money! Raise your hand and head... Pour the wine in the cup into your mouth at once. Gu Beichen bit his teeth and swallowed in. He grabbed the cup with a little force Jane Mo, you always ask that divorce is because you have found several families? I won''t divorce yet... It''s killing you! Dream media. Li Jinxi ordered the emergency public relations to deal with the rumor that Su Jun left the "car earthquake". One is the first two The heroine of the incident was also speculated at the beginning, but then the car number was exposed, and soon everyone locked in Jane Mo, who participated in the design of Adrian concert hall. In fact, there is nothing about unmarried men and unmarried women, but who is Su Junli, the most likely successor of the Su family, or a pianist comparable to a star? "Dong Dong!" "Come in!" Li Jinxi answered without raising his head. Someone pushed the door and came in. The high-heeled shoes made a sound of ''pedaling'' on the floor. Li Jinxi looked up and saw Shen Chu, wearing a sunset red wool cloak and white pencil pants, sitting down opposite, "ah Chu?" She put down her pen. "How do you think of coming to the company to find me?" "Invite you to dinner..." Shen Chu said with a smile. "It''s still early, so I just came up to you." Li Jinxi picked up her eyebrows and smiled and said teasingly, "find me for dinner... Why not Beichen or Shaochen?" When Shen Chu heard this, he looked dark. There was a touch of self mockery at the bottom of his eyes, but it was too fleeting for people to catch, "why, I don''t want to come to you for dinner?" "How could I be unwilling to have dinner with beauty Shen?" Li Jinxi smiled and said, "but..." she fanned her eyelashes, looked at Shen Chu seriously and asked, "why do you look so bad?" When asked, Shen Chu smiled bitterly, then took a deep breath and shrugged, "it''s all right... I haven''t come back for a long time. Many things feel right and wrong." "You mean Beichen?" Li Jinxi asked with an eyebrow. Seeing that the bitterness in the corners of Shen Chu''s mouth was deeper, he couldn''t help comforting him, "Ah Chu, you don''t know the temperament of Beichen... Unlike Yunze AI, he is serious about everything. No matter what the purpose of the wife at home is, he is married now... For the hidden wife and for you, he may feel that it''s unfair to none of you if he doesn''t deal with the marriage well!" Shen Chu smiled with self mockery: "I know... Just," she paused and said with a heavy figure, "Jinxi, I think Beichen doesn''t want to divorce at all... This is the main problem." "How possible?" Li Jinxi stared in surprise, "Beichen doesn''t like that woman again, not to mention Beichen loves you so much..." "Maybe..." Shen Chu lowered his eyes and said, "... Is it related to the fact that I had to leave five years ago? I''m afraid he''s still angry with me?" Li Jinxi frowned, "but then again... Ah Chu, it was clear that you were going to be engaged five years ago. Why did you suddenly leave?" Shen Chu was silent "Ah Chu?" Li Jinxi sighed deeply, "we are best friends, can''t we say it?" Shen Chu looked at Li Jinxi. His face was full of forbearance under sadness. He seemed not to want to say, but he needed to talk to someone and said, "do you remember the project between JK and the emperor five years ago?" Li Jinxi''s thoughts stagnated. "Was that the first ecological park in Asia in the south of Los Angeles?" Shen Chu nodded. "That was Beichen''s first large-scale project to enter the emperor. At the beginning, people in the circle knew... If that project failed, he would have no hope of joining the board of directors." "But I remember you left after you won the project!" Li Jinxi asked suspiciously. Shen Chu laughed at himself and said softly, "if I had left before, would Beichen be so smart... Don''t you know?" Chapter 153 Li Jinxi was silent, because what Shen Chu said was a fact... Only, this fact, from beginning to end, only Shen Chu paid and suffered. "Why not say it?" Li Jinxi''s face was filled with sadness. "It''s unfair to you..." she paused and continued, "now the emperor Beichen has been controlled. What else do you have to worry about?" Shen Chu said astringently, "what''s the use of saying it? I thought... Even if there''s no reason, Beichen''s heart is only me. But I seem to be too self righteous." Li Jinxi leaned over the table, stretched out his hand and signaled Shen Chu. Shen Chu handed over her hand. Li Jinxi grabbed her hand and said, "feelings need to be fought for by yourself... Besides, you love each other, and the Beichen wife I haven''t even seen in the rumor should not be an obstacle to you!" Shen Chu''s pupils dilated, and then nodded back Li Jinxi knew from her appearance that she wouldn''t tell Gu Beichen the reason five years ago. She couldn''t help but curl her lips and say, "if you don''t say it, I''ll say it... I can''t stand the misunderstanding of a lover like this." "Jinxi..." "All right, don''t say anything." Li Jinxi interrupted Shen Chu, "if Beichen is angry with you because of this, you will let him be angry?" Shen Chu lowered his eyes, "Jinxi, you don''t understand... If he is with me because of guilt, I''d rather not." "Then you want him to resist being with you because of the thorn in his heart?" Li Jinxi rolled his eyes. "Is this what you want?" Seeing Shen Chu flapping her smart eyes and looking at herself pitifully, Li Jinxi sighed, "Beichen should know what to say about it. As for what he wants to do later, it''s your two people''s business..." she let Shen Chu go and got up to get her coat, "OK, go out to dinner first." Shen Chu pursed his lips, looked at Li Jinxi''s back, narrowed his eyes slightly, and a sharp light slipped in her beautiful eyes... Just fleeting, and restored her charming appearance. Jian Mo''s body was sore until she got off work, because she was thinking about Jian Heng and the black boss. She was in no mood to pay attention to the scandal between her and Su Jun, which had become more and more popular and even vicious. "Sister Mo, are you... Okay?" Seeing Jian Mo''s bad face in the evening, she came over and asked with concern at the end of work, "those people just can''t eat grapes and say sour, sister mo... Don''t care. What if you''re separated from Su Jun? NIMA''s male unmarried female unmarried..." "Yes, foam!" Mo Xiaoya said, "where there are many women, there are many things... It''s not enough for them to choke!" Jane Mo listened in a confused way. When she got clear, she knew that they were talking about the news they reported that night with Su Jun, "I''m fine, but I didn''t have a good rest last night..." She looked at the time. It was time to get off work. "I''ll go first." "Well, go back and have a good rest!" Mo Xiaoya said with some worry, "look at your face color difference." Jane Mo nodded with a smile, "HMM..." after she said hello, she left the company in a hurry. The time agreed with the man was less than two hours. Jian Mo didn''t drive and took a taxi to devil''skiss Jane Mo has heard of this heavy metal bar. It is said that it is very chaotic and involves some things that ordinary people don''t involve, but the backstage is very hard and hasn''t fallen down. Entering devil''skiss, the deafening sound of heavy metal music seemed to run through the eardrum. Jane Mo clenched her hand, pressed down the feeling that her heart was shaking by the electric sound, and walked in amid the whistle from time to time. Jane Mo turned around and didn''t see anyone looking for her. She dialed the phone. Because the music was too loud, she could only roar and say, "I''m looking for Jian Heng!" Jane Mo didn''t hear what was said on the phone clearly, but just a few seconds later there was a hang up sound... After a while, a small looking man with dyed hair and flowing clothes came over. "Looking for Jian Heng?" He roared. Jane Mo stared and nodded. "Come with me!" Jian Mo walked carefully with the man. His subordinates consciously held the mobile phone and had the idea of calling the police in case of any accident Jane Mo was taken to a box. The sound insulation effect here is very good. When the door is closed, the noise outside is basically very small. "Where''s Jane truss?" Jane Mo looked around. Because of the angle and light, she couldn''t really see the faces of the men sitting on the sofa. "Where''s the money?" Someone asked. Jane Mo bit her teeth, took out a supplementary card from her bag and patted the check on the tea table, "where''s the person?" Someone leaned over, took the check and looked at it. "Ha ha" smiled twice. "Does Miss Jane seem to mind more about what happened two years ago than her brother''s life or death?" Listening to the man''s words, Jane Mo''s body began to tremble "Don''t worry," the man said faintly, "I can''t threaten women with such things." Jane Mo gritted her teeth, "you did it if you didn''t..." The man smiled and smiled darkly, "that''s because Jane truss owes money... As long as he can pay back the account, why not find an excuse?" Jane Mo clenched her gums. She tried to see the man talking. Unfortunately, she could only see his outline, "where''s Jane truss?" She asked, gnashing her teeth. The man waved his hand and saw the man who took Jane Mo out of the box. After a while, he came in with Jane truss who limped. "Xiao mo..." when Jian Heng saw Jian Mo, his eyes lit up. Jane Mo looked at him with disgust and said to the man, "can I take people away?" The man smiled, "of course!" Jane Mo didn''t want to stay for more than a second. She turned and left "Wait!" The man suddenly opened his mouth. Jane Mo''s heart suddenly stagnated, and the cells all over her became nervous. Her heart, which had been carrying, also missed a few beats. She slowly turned around and looked... She saw the man standing up and coming towards her. A man shaves a flat head and says whether a man looks good or not. The flat head is the best model for testing... Obviously, this man is very stylish. However, the scar on his chin was treacherous and made people tremble. The man came to Jane Mo and stood still. He looked at her and wanted to suppress her fear, but her body trembled uncontrollably. He couldn''t help but hook the lower lip corner, and then leaned over Jane Mo subconsciously stepped back, but behind her was the box door. She couldn''t retreat. The man approached for a few minutes, and then smiled and said, "do you want to know..." he said, his face close to Jane Mo for a few minutes, and then lowered his voice and said, "who was the person who slept with you that night two years ago?" Chapter 154 It was a nightmare for Jane Mo two years ago... That night, she lost not only her first time, but also a happy family. The man''s low words were treacherous, and Jane Mo''s body was shaking uncontrollably. She stared and looked at her face... As if she was going to swallow it alive. The man looked at her and couldn''t help smiling, "don''t worry... It''s not me!" Jane Mo''s pupils dilated and didn''t speak. She just resisted the feeling of tumbling in her stomach and retreated back, firmly against the door. The man looked at Jian Mo with a touch of appreciation at the bottom of his eyes. He not only appreciated her courage to come here, but also appreciated the momentum of clearly resisting that night, but also facing it bravely. Slowly lifted up, the man stepped back two steps, and from beginning to end, the corner of his mouth was hooked with a smile from evil charm to ruffian Qi, "you can go..." Jian Mo''s heart "Shua" fell into her chest. She stared back, turned and opened the door of the box and strode out... No matter whether Jane truss came out or not. "Brother Hao, just let that girl go?" Someone asked vaguely. Shen Hao said, "I heard... Gu mohuai is coming back?" "Well, the news on the road says... It seems to be for the emperor''s anniversary!" Shen Hao looked back at the talking man and snorted coldly, "I used this woman to pit Gu Beichen, but who knows it didn''t happen..." he said, his eyes were deep, "but... It seems that Gu Beichen still slept with this woman!" However, because we didn''t catch the scene at that time, everyone thought there was an accident on the way Thinking of this, Shen Hao''s eyes deepened. Then he went to the tea table, picked up a beer, bit off the cover and drank. There was a strange emotion in the bottom of his eyes. The deafening music hit Jian Mo''s heart like a sledgehammer. She clenched her hands tightly and walked out of the bar with her back straight. "Xiaomo..." "Don''t call me!" Jian Mo turned and roared at Jian Heng, "Jian Heng, how many bad things have I done in my last life before I can be your sister in this life?" There are pedestrians coming and going in the street, one after another glancing over Fortunately, it was already dark, and the angle of light could not reflect Jane Mo''s face. Otherwise, someone will come back. She is the one who left the "car shock" with Su Jun! "Today is an accident... I was cheated by them!" Jian Heng explained, "my hand is clearly going to win!" Jane Mo looked at Jane stringer in despair, and the corners of her mouth moved back and forth. At last, she didn''t say anything, but made a mocking "Ho", then turned to stop the taxi and left Jane Mo kept silent after getting on the bus. The driver asked her where to go several times without saying. Finally, the driver had to start the motor car first and drive slowly forward. The neon outside has rendered the city of Los Angeles colorful. It''s clear that it''s busy everywhere, but... Jian Mo''s heart is very empty, very empty! Drooping her eyes, holding the mobile phone she had been holding in her hand, Jane Mo pursed her lips, and then sent a text message to Gu Beichen "If I lost it alone in the street... Husband, will you put down everything and come to me now?" Gu Beichen''s foot just stepped into the door of the heaven night box. When his sight fell on Li Jinxi who was arguing with Li Yunze, his mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. As he walked in, he took out his mobile phone and crossed the text message... Looking at the words above, he suddenly stopped. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, and then he turned and walked out without saying anything "Beichen?" Li Yunze shouted, "why did you come and go?" Li Jinxi immediately jumped up, "Gu Beichen, I have something to say to you... What are you doing?" "There''s something temporary. Let''s talk about it later!" Gu Beichen kept walking out and hung his head to reply to the text message. "No, I have to say it today!" Li Jinxi hurried forward and pulled Gu Beichen, "otherwise I can''t sleep at night." Gu Beichen frowned, looked at the word "will" already typed on the screen, pressed the send key and looked at Li Jinxi. He said indifferently: "you were used to that night anyway..." "..." Li Jinxi twitched at the corners of his mouth, and saw that Gu Beichen had pulled his arms and raised his feet, "it''s about Shen Chu!" She said hurriedly, "the reason why she left five years ago... Beichen, what is more important than this?" Gu Beichen suddenly stopped, and the eagle''s eyes looked at Li Jinxi Li Jinxi was a little proud. "I had dinner with ah Chu today, but I inadvertently knew the reason why she left... Beichen, do you want to hear?" As soon as her words fell, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone shook. Gu Beichen looked down Jane Mo: I''ll wait for you in the "no one" world until I can''t wait Such an affectation is not like what Jian Mo said at all, but Gu Beichen''s heart suddenly tightened because of this sentence... It seems that this sentence is a rope, a rope that tightens his heart and makes him hurt. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil stared at the text message and gradually became deep and bottomless. It was like an ancient pond, which made people can''t guess his mind at the moment. Li Jinxi didn''t know who sent the message to Gu Beichen. He was just surprised. He heard Gu Beichen say, "I''ll find you tomorrow..." then, the man had left with great strides. Li Jinxi was stunned. She couldn''t react... Shouldn''t Beichen put everything down and couldn''t wait to know the reason why ah Chu left? Now... What''s the situation? After Gu Beichen got out of heaven night, he drove his car and slid into the traffic flow. He timely pressed the car phone and dialed Jian Mo''s number. The soft piano RBT made Gu Beichen frown. For the past two years, Jian Mo''s RBT has been this song, but now his heart is filled with Well, it''s because Su Junli! Gu Beichen didn''t resist his idea, but his eagle eyes narrowed slightly and stepped on the accelerator under his feet, so he couldn''t help accelerating his speed. At the moment when the phone was connected, Gu Beichen asked, "where is it?" Jane Mo was silent. "Did you really come to me?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen responded with deliberate indifference. Jian Mo stood at the entrance of the bustling subway station and looked at the advertising of the emperor''s club on the opposite commercial building. Her eyes had been slightly wet because she was moved. "If I don''t say, can you find me?" Regardless of whether Beichen is idle at the moment, because of her short message, he came to find her. Even if this man can not love, let her greedy leave the last good! Gu Beichen frowned slightly, listened to the noisy voice around Jian Mo on the phone, and said calmly, "within an hour, Jian mo... I can''t find you, and I promise you any request!" "You found me..." Jane Mo smiled and said playfully in her voice, "I promise you any request!" Chapter 155 Jane Mo hung up and looked at the time... 7:47 pm! Put the mobile phone back into the bag. Jian Mo kept staring at the large screen of the opposite commercial building, looking at the advertisements one by one, as if time passed quickly... But very slowly. Jane Mo doesn''t know whether Gu Beichen can find her, but... This hour''s expectation, she thinks, will leave indelible traces in her life memory. Gu Beichen dialed Xiao Jing after hanging up Jian Mo''s phone, "check how many external displays of the mall put the advertisement of emperor club?" "Huh?" Xiao Jing didn''t react for a moment. Gu Beichen sank his face, but before he could speak again, Xiao Jing hurriedly said, "two minutes!" After that, he had hung up the phone. In less than two minutes, Xiao Jing had sent the addresses of all the external displays of the shopping malls put into the emperor club. Gu Beichen stopped at the side of the road, screened the movement from Jian Mo''s phone at that time, and then started the car to fly to the last three uncertain places There was no mistake at that time. Jane Mo should be near the subway station. He heard someone mention the subway entrance nearby. Only three shopping malls that put advertisements are near the subway entrance! Gu Beichen didn''t find anyone in the first two. He went to the last one without hesitation. In the paradise night club, Li Jinxi couldn''t figure it out and didn''t understand. "Yunze, what''s the situation in Beichen now? Why don''t I know? What''s more important than achu?" Li Jinxi frowned. "Besides, it''s night... If it''s day, it''s understandable to say it''s something in the company." Li Yunze glanced sideways at Li Jinxi, and then looked down at the red wine cup in his hand... Under the blurred light, the red liquor was set off somewhat treacherous, just like scarlet blood. "How do I know?" Li Yunze said calmly, "besides, emperor has many foreign companies, and it''s normal to have jet lag." Li Jinxi sat down angrily, leaned over and grabbed a glass of wine and drank it with pride. Li Yunze looked at Li Jinxi, who had been making mistakes all the way, and said faintly: "feelings, I advise you to let them develop themselves..." he shook his glass and sipped, "a person with blank feelings simply broke his own heart!" "Li Yunze, what''s your face to say about me?" Li Jinxi yelled at him, "it''s like you''re not blank..." Li Yunze was too lazy to argue with Li Jinxi. After drinking, he asked, "but... Why did Shen Chu leave at the beginning?" "I won''t tell you!" Li Jinxi was now proud and charming. "If Beichen doesn''t come to beg me tomorrow, I won''t say it!" Li Yunze sneered and took back his sight without so much curiosity. When red wine enters the mouth, the mellow taste stimulates the taste buds... Li Yunze''s eyes are deep. Li Jinxi didn''t figure it out, but he could see clearly... If there''s anything important, wouldn''t it be easier to call directly? short message? I''m afraid... Is it Jane Mo? In the late autumn night, the wind was a little cold. A gust of wind blew and Jane Mo shrank. Looking down at the time, it''s already past 8:30... In more than ten minutes, Gu Beichen can''t find her, but it''s a little too late. But compared with asking Gu Beichen to promise her one thing, Jane Mo hopes to see him now! Jane Mo hopped in place to drive away the cold. With the rotation of the second hand, her heart began to be anxious and worried Los Angeles is so big that it can''t turn down one third of the way in an hour. Can Gu Beichen find her without any hint? "Alas..." Jian Mo looked at the minute hand pointing to the position of 40 with some chagrin. "I knew I would give him a hint. It''s great to shorten the time... Now, you deserve to stand here and freeze into a dog in the wind!" While Jane Mo was in a small circle, she read it in pieces in her mouth, and her expression was very rich Gu Beichen stopped at the opposite side of the road. His eyes crossed the windshield and looked at Jian mo. His thin lips involuntarily raised a thin smile. As time passed, Jian Mo began to read and stare at time from 40. It''s past forty-five, but Suddenly, the mobile phone rang, and before Jane Mo''s thoughts turned around, the screen showed "Mr. g". Jane Mo stopped stamping her feet, stared at the caller ID name for a while, and then picked it up and put it in her ear... At that moment, she felt that her heart had forgotten to beat. "It''s been an hour..." Jane Mo tried to keep calm and said proudly, "ah Chen, it seems that you have to promise me a condition!" "Oh, really?" Gu Beichen''s light voice shows the charm of belonging to the night alone, which is as mellow and magnetic as a cello. Jane Mo frowned slightly, and was asked by Gu Beichen. She was a little fluffy... She just looked around subconsciously, but she didn''t notice anything. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s rare cute appearance, and the smile from the corners of his mouth instantly reached the bottom of his eyes, "opposite two o''clock... Get on the bus!" After that, he didn''t give Jane Mo a chance to question, so he hung up the phone. Jane Mo listened to the "beep beep" hanging up sound from her mobile phone and looked blankly in the direction of two o''clock... She saw a calm and restrained Bentley parked on the roadside under the light refraction of the big screen. At the right time, the window of the driver''s seat was lowered, and Jane Mo was straight to the deep eagle eyes... Even though there was traffic in the middle! At that moment, Jane Mo didn''t know how to describe her mood Excited, happy, moved, sour! Yes, and sour and astringent... The five flavors of love made her experience all at once. Jane Mo crossed the road and got on the co pilot regardless of whether anyone paid attention. "How did you find me?" When she got on the bus, she looked curiously and asked Gu Beichen. "You think everyone is as stupid as you?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo sideways. Her white skin was slightly red because of the cold wind. It was so charming that people wanted to taste it. "..." Jian Mo was frozen in place. In the same sentence, she said twice, really good? Jane Mo skimmed her mouth. "He who gets close to ink gets dark!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently raised an evil radian, and the eagle''s eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply, "well, I know myself clearly. I know I''m ink..." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and felt that she was drunk when she pushed herself into the pit. Gu Beichen''s smile gradually spread, and then started the car. When the car pulled into the traffic flow, he asked, "you''re so pretentious tonight. Tell me... What''s the matter?" "I miss you, can''t I?" Jane said with a greasy mouth. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo and looked ahead, "why, because I gave you a supplementary card to please the gold Lord with gratitude?" Chapter 156 "I can''t have no purpose. Play some mood?" Jian Mo''s dissatisfied lips and beautiful eyes turned over. Gu Beichen smiled and asked, "have you eaten yet?" As soon as I got off work, I went to devil''s kiss. First, I didn''t have time to eat, and second, I didn''t have the mind... At this moment, Gu Beichen said that Jane Mo was a little hungry, but she didn''t have an appetite. When the bus goes to the red light intersection, Gu Beichen stops, and then the eagle looks at Jian Mo slightly deeply... His eyes are sharp like a detector, as if he wants to see Jian Mo clearly. "Not yet..." Jane Mo was afraid to look directly at Gu Beichen''s line of sight, and hurriedly said with her eyes shining. "What would you like to eat?" Gu Beichen asked. "Whatever!" Jane Mo answered casually. Gu Beichen immediately frowned and said with some dissatisfaction: "when women say casual, they often make men tangle..." "As long as the Charter fee doesn''t need me to pay, and I don''t need to offset it to the boss, I can eat anything!" Jane Mo''s mouth is slightly pricked. She looks like she can''t expect to pit me this time. Gu Beichen was amused by Jian Mo''s appearance, "well, the Charter fee won''t let you out. We''ll find someone to do it!" He suddenly turned his direction. "Where are you going?" Jane Mo is a little curious. She doesn''t know who is the person who pays the Charter fee? Gu Beichen just looked at Jian Mo deeply, smiled and said mysteriously, "take you to see a person''s cooking and see his world at the same time." Jane Mo glanced and muttered, "what''s the big deal... Don''t you know later?" "Then you ask?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows. "..." Jane Mo twitched the corners of her mouth, and finally shrugged her shoulders angrily and lay back on the seat, "ah Chen?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen calmly answered. "Why did you come?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen curiously and asked. "Lost my wife, come to find my wife!" Gu Beichen answered naturally, "what do you think it is? Or...?" he deliberately paused and looked at Jian Mo, "do you think I won''t come?" "Yes!" Jane Mo didn''t lie. "In fact... I don''t even expect you to reply to your text message." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, as if he was very unhappy with Jian Mo''s thought... But on second thought, if he fell in the past, he might not return! Especially... Five years ago! Although, it is possible that Li Jinxi deliberately said that just to keep him "Mo''er!" "Huh?" Jane Mo subconsciously answered, but then she looked at Gu Beichen in amazement. Generally, Gu Beichen will only pretend to call her like this when she is at grandma Gu''s house or Gu Ci''s house. What''s the nerve at the moment? Gu Beichen''s sideburns moved slightly and wanted to say something, but he didn''t say anything at last Jian Mo threw down her mouth discontentedly and then took back her sight... However, when her sight touched the street view outside, she subconsciously frowned. When Gu Beichen''s car stopped at Devil''s kiss, Jian Mo suddenly widened her eyes! "You won''t tell me to come to the bar for dinner?" Jane Mo raised her voice a little because she was nervous. Gu Beichen smiled, "let you try the Dragon boss''s Craft..." he didn''t notice Jane moton''s face. He turned and got out of the car and went to the co driver. The gentleman opened the door. Jane Mo looked at the sign of devil''skiss with treacherous light and swallowed it secretly. I don''t know if the Dragon owl knew when she came. "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo said in a thick voice, "I suddenly feel a little uncomfortable!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked down at Jian Mo, "what''s the matter?" Jian Mo doesn''t know whether her stomach is churning because she resists what happened two years ago, or whether she is nervous because she is afraid that Gu Beichen knows what she wants to hide. In short... She is really uncomfortable at the moment. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s slightly white face, and his eagle eyes narrowed slightly. When he saw that Jian Mo''s forehead overflowed with thin sweat, he frowned and tightened his eyebrows, "stomach uncomfortable?" He whispered and looked at Jian Mo''s hand covering his stomach. Jane Mo quickly nodded her head at the moment, taking care of nothing else. Gu Beichen closed the door without saying a word and went to the driver''s seat. He got on the bus, fastened his seat belt, started, put on gear and stepped on the accelerator at one go, "I''ll take you to the hospital." "I''ll just go home and have a rest..." Jane Mo said hurriedly. Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo and asked angrily, "are you women afraid to go to the hospital?" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen. When he clarified his words, he mockingly hooked the corner of his lips, pressed down the more sad mood in his heart, pulled the corner of his mouth and said, "who likes to go to the hospital? Those who like to go to the hospital are estimated to have gone out and forgot to take medicine..." "..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly deep, and his cold, carved face was tight. Finally, Gu Beichen didn''t send Jian Mo to the hospital. They went back to Runze garden directly. Gu Beichen stopped the car and saw that Jian Mo''s face was still pale. He took her out of the car with a calm face and then entered the elevator. "I''m much better..." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s cold face and said weakly, "just for a while." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but his thin lips pursed coldly. Jane Mo didn''t speak any more. She nestled in Gu Beichen''s arm until he put it on the bed, "that..." "Shut up!" Gu Beichen didn''t drink angrily. Then he took out his mobile phone and dialed Li Yunze, "come to Runze garden." Li Yunze hasn''t responded yet. There has been a "beep beep" hang up tone on the phone. He was stunned, and then felt that he was careless in making friends! He is the first private hospital in China and the only successor of Huakang hospital, okay? He is a famous senior attending doctor in thoracic surgery and Neurosurgery, okay? Why is he now an on call family doctor? Or the free one "What''s the matter?" Li Jinxi asked curiously when he saw Li Yunze''s bitter face. Li Yunze said in a deep voice: "summoned by the Lord, go and serve..." then he got up and went out. Li Jinxi quit, "Hey, what are you doing with Beichen... You two left one after another before everyone arrived. What is it?" "Play with your friends!" Li Yunze put down a word, opened the box door and left, leaving Li Jinxi shouting discontentedly inside. Li Yunze drove straight to Runze park. He felt that Beichen''s goods were really planted this time... Even Shen Chu didn''t call himself a family doctor before! But... Good! Compared with Shen Chu, he still likes Jian Mo who has only met several times... Don''t ask him why, it''s all based on his feelings! Li Yunze rang the doorbell, then leaned against the door and waited After a while, the door opened, and Li Yunze looked up at Gu Beichen''s dark face, "Yo, wipe the exhaust?" "Jane Mo''s stomach is uncomfortable again. She doesn''t want to go to the hospital!" Li Yunze frowned lightly and looked at Gu Beichen with deep eyes. He said half jokingly, "I have a stomachache and don''t like going to the hospital... This is quite like Shen Chu!" Then he noticed the change of Gu Beichen''s expression and wanted to see... Whether Beichen had figured out what he wanted and who he wanted? Chapter 157 Gu Beichen''s face didn''t change much, but he looked at Li Yunze coldly with a warning in his sight. Li Yunze shrugged and knew that it was inappropriate to ask this question at this place... He walked into the room and went to the bedroom. "How long did Jane Mo move to Runze garden?" Li Yunze said discontentedly as he walked, "I''ve been here twice... You live in lanze garden with her for two years, and I haven''t been there once. It''s entirely a Feng Shui problem..." Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but followed Li Yunze and his face became more heavy. Jian Mo looked at Li Yunze with embarrassment, "that... Trouble you again." She glanced at Gu Beichen and felt embarrassed. Li Yunze looked back at Gu Beichen with a gloomy face. The evil spirit hooked the lip corner and bent over, "I''m a doctor, I should..." he teased the notice, began to check, and sometimes asked Jian Mo some questions. Gu Beichen stood aside with his hands copying his pockets and didn''t bother Li Yunze''s inspection, but... With Li Yunze''s problem, his eyes gradually became deep, just like an ancient well. "Jane Mo, you''re not a child..." Gu Beichen sneered coldly, "do you want people to stare at dinner?" Jane Mo pursed the corners of her mouth. Something happened one after another these days. How can she have an appetite? "I lose weight!" Jane Mo talks nonsense. Gu Beichen glanced up and down at Jian Mo with sharp eagle eyes, "thin people have no hand feeling, but also lose weight?" "At that moment, Jane looked at the corner of her face, and her mouth twitched. "Beauty is a woman''s nature," Li Yunze said, breaking the embarrassment. "But health is important." With that, he looked at Gu Beichen and said, "however, Jane Mo''s stomach is a little cold, and it''s easy to have stomach spasm when she''s nervous. If you''re free, you''d better take her to the hospital to have a good check and don''t leave the root of the disease." Li Yunze looked at Jian Mo, his lips moved, and he wanted to talk and stop Jian Mo''s pressure is too high and her mind is too heavy... It causes stomach spasm. If she doesn''t take good care of it, she will certainly have thorny problems in the future. However, everyone has his own privacy. It''s inconvenient for him to say the pressure and worries of Jane mo. "I''ll prescribe some medicine to deliver..." Li Yunze took back his sight and looked at Gu Beichen with some meaning. "Yes." Gu Beichen responded coldly. After looking at Jian Mo, he turned and walked outside. Li Yunze followed him out and went to the living room. Gu Beichen asked, "is there anything else?" "Eyes are really sharp..." Li Yunze joked and said seriously, "Jane Mo has too much pressure. It''s bad for her health." Gu Beichen frowned... The design of the emperor club has been obtained. What pressure does she have? Looking at Gu Beichen''s gloomy appearance, Li Yunze shook his head and asked, "is the medicine still delivered?" "No, I''ll make her some ginger tea later!" Gu Beichen said in a deep voice. Li Yunze smiled, "that''s ok... Her stomach spasm caused by cold stomach and nervous tension. Drinking something to warm her stomach is better than taking medicine..." he paused, "I''ll go first if it''s all right." Gu Beichen didn''t leave Li Yunze. He just saw Jian Mo pale and nervous There are ginger and brown sugar in the fridge. Gu Beichen cooked ginger tea to warm Jian Mo''s stomach. Drinking ginger black tea, Jian Mo remembered that she had a chance to drink it cooked by Gu Beichen because of her stomach discomfort last time... She was the second, and the first was Shen Chu. This can''t be changed. "I''m hungry..." Jane Mo said angrily. Gu Beichen''s face was cold and he immediately wanted to call to order takeout. "Husband..." Jane Mo suddenly hooked Gu Beichen''s neck and kissed him on the corner of his lips, "you do it!" Because Jian Mo had just drunk ginger tea, her mouth was full of sweet and Zizi flavor. Gu Beichen was kissed by her, and her voice became dull: "are you sure?" Jane Mo innocently fanned her long and curled eyelashes. Her eyes were very beautiful, because the smile was slightly bent, just like a crescent moon, with aura overflowing. It''s just like the bright pupil dyed with ink. It''s clear and bright as stars. "OK!" Jane Mo kissed Gu Beichen again. "So... Do you want to do it?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. He wanted to refuse, but when he saw the expectation overflowing from Jian Mo''s eyes, he still nodded, "just don''t regret!" "How nice of my husband!" Jane Mo rubbed her cheek against Gu Beichen''s face. Some of them were cheap and obedient and said, "there are ingredients in the fridge..." "Jane Mo, when I''m ready, you must eat..." Gu Beichen picked his eyebrow and said. Jian Mo nodded. The ginger tea is so delicious... Gu Beichen is a good cook! Just... Jane Mo saw the beginning, but she didn''t guess the end. Gu Beichen, looking forward to Jian Mo, went to cook dinner... It took more than half an hour, three dishes and a pot of rice! Jian Mo felt that the speed was definitely the level of the chef. He was full of expectation and went to the restaurant at Gu Beichen''s call. He asked excitedly along the way, "ah Chen, you must often cook? The speed is so fast!" Gu Beichen looked deeply at Jian Mo, "the first time... You are the first!" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she said she was unhappy. It was all a lie... Ginger black tea was the second, and the meal he cooked was always the first. However, when Jane Mo stood in front of the table and looked at the three black dishes on the table and a pot of water. She didn''t know whether it was rice or porridge, she was stunned. "What are these ghosts?" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen convulsively. Gu beichenjunyan calmly looked at Jian Mo, and then said the dish name: "braised eggplant, hot and sour potato shreds... Cough," he looked at the plate of thick "potato shreds" similar to his little thumb, and then changed his mouth, "hot and sour potato chips, and fried meat!" Listen to him every time he reports a dish name, the corners of Jane Mo''s mouth twitch, and even her just right stomach twitches "Do it for the first time," Gu Beichen slightly raised his eyebrows. "Since it''s what you asked, so you eat!" Jane Mo really doesn''t want to attack Gu Beichen, but how can these dark things be imported? "Why don''t you follow the plot?" Jane Mo cried bitterly when she stuffed a soy sauce and didn''t know how many eggplant she put into her mouth. "Huh?" Gu Beichen seemed puzzled by her words. Jane Mo grimaced. "Romantic novels are not all crazy bullying, pulling the president, blowing up the sky, but also proficient in all kinds of martial arts... Can you open and hang a table full of Han people even if you haven''t cooked a meal?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo contemptuously, "naive!" "..." Jane Mo has no courage to stretch out her chopsticks for the second time. It can be seen that Gu Beichen looks like "you have to bear the consequences if you ask for it". She is very tangled to clip a "potato silk". Unfortunately, Jane Mo couldn''t put it in her mouth. Finally, she looked at Gu Beichen pitifully and said, "husband, let''s order takeout..." she said, feeling flattered again, "why don''t I do it again?" "No!" Gu Beichen''s face didn''t have to be discussed, "you have to finish..." Chapter 158 "My stomach is uncomfortable..." Jane Mo began to cheat and simply put down the chopsticks. "Your level is that you don''t eat for dogs!" "Are you a dog?" Gu Beichen asked with an eyebrow. Jian Mo stared at Gu Beichen angrily, "of course not!" "So... You eat!" Gu Beichen indifferently picked a good-looking chin. "..." Jane Mo is really anxious about her IQ. Why does she put herself in every few words? Gu Beichen smiled at his thin lips. If there was nothing, he gloated, "I''ve just confirmed with you again and again..." Jane Mo gnashed her teeth. "The first time you cooked, was it because Shen Chu knew that cooking would poison people?" She asked angrily. Gu Beichen slightly sank his eyes. "Do you need me to cook another dish for you?" Jane Mo didn''t notice Gu Beichen''s mistake, but just tangled in these dark dishes... She turned her eyes, then sandwiched the half cooked meat, and suddenly sent it to Gu Beichen''s mouth when Gu Beichen didn''t notice. Gu Beichen frowned at the moment. The salty bitter taste stimulated his taste buds "Is it delicious?" Jane Mo fanned innocent eyes, and her body trembled with a smile. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were dark, "you haven''t tasted this dish yet, you can try it!" With that, he took chopsticks to clip it and was ready to feed Jane mo. Unfortunately, Jane Mo escaped "Your food is even better than that of primary school students after life class..." Jane Mo said with a smile without any kindness. Gu Beichen put down his chopsticks and went to grab Jian Mo to taste the meat... They were chasing me in the huge living room, accompanied by Jian Mo''s proud laughter from time to time. Unfortunately, her smile didn''t last for a few seconds. Gu Beichen caught her and brought her back to his chest because of inertia Jian Mo looked up slightly, with a smile still on her face, but her vision was deeply captured by Gu Beichen''s deep eyes... The original playful heart seemed to calm down at this moment. Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo deeply. This was the first time she smiled like a child in front of him Something whirled between the two people''s eyes, gradually crossed each other''s eyes and directly poked into each other''s hearts... At that moment, there was no, the sky thunder hooked the earth fire, as if it was natural. Clothes are scattered all over the living room, and the plush carpet beside the sofa has become the best battlefield for each other Jane Mo thought she would resist Gu Beichen because she saw the black boss in the bar... But when his kiss fell like rain, she didn''t reject it at all! Jane Mo doesn''t understand Do you just think you care about the night two years ago... In fact, she doesn''t care so much at all. Or... Gu Beichen has branded enough on her to make her forget her ability that night two years ago? "Husband, you''re great!" Feeling deep, Jane Mo smiled and praised. Men are the most sad when they are said "no", and they are said to be "great". It simply reflects their heroism and will only become more and more brave After boasting, Jane Mo regretted... She didn''t eat the meal and finally did overdrawn physical work. Fortunately, Gu Beichen was restrained and didn''t completely break her up Jane Mo''s arms were on the desk, her hands holding her cheeks and leaning her head to look at the sunshine outside the window... At the moment, her head was full of last night, the dishes, the last warmth, and waking up in his arms this morning. Thinking of these, Jane Mo smiled unconsciously at the corners of her mouth, and even her eyes were filled with joy. "Laughing so licentious..." Mo Xiaoya took the hand of the design drawing and walked around in front of Jian Mo, "the war spread last night!" Then she looked vaguely at the faint red mark in Jane Mo''s neck. Jane Mo suddenly regained her mind and looked at Mo Xiaoya laxly, "huh?" Mo Xiaoya picked up her chin and motioned. Jian Mo felt a "thump" in her heart and hurried out of the makeup mirror to take a picture... Sure enough, there were strawberries planted by Gu Beichen in her neck! "Teng" once, Jian Mo''s face suddenly turned red, just like cooked shrimp. "Tut Tut," Mo Xiaoya leaned on the work grid, "it seems... The development is good?" She said with a smile, "but... Su Jun is very good from that man. You are a serious man and woman with him!" "..." Jian Mo frowned, "Su Jun and I are just friends!" Mo Xiaoya smiled, "Oh, my friend... My boyfriend is also a friend!" Jane Mo has a headache and doesn''t know how to explain... Now it''s getting darker and darker. She simply doesn''t explain. "What do you want from me?" Jane Mo brings the topic back to work. Mo Xiaoya looked at Jian Mo to avoid the problem. She smiled and handed her the design drawing. "The owner is not satisfied with the layout of the study. It''s too complicated..." Jane Mo took the design drawing and frowned. "It''s a little complicated." Mo Xiaoya nodded approvingly, "I was a little surprised when I saw the picture... Foam, this is not your level!" Jane Mo pulled it off awkwardly at the corner of her mouth... Yesterday, she was distracted when drawing because she was thinking about the 500000 thing. Finally, there was such a serious omission. "Fortunately, the owner is very good at talking," said Mo Xiaoya. "You can make changes and give them directly to Sun Ke later." "OK..." Jane Mo nodded. "I''ll be busy first." Mo Xiaoya said and wanted to turn around. However, she asked mysteriously, "is it really not su Junli?" He also vaguely glanced at the "strawberry" in Jane Mo''s neck. Jane Mo drooped her shoulders and looked at Mo Xiaoya helplessly, "no!" Mo Xiaoya didn''t know whether to believe it or not. Anyway, after a mysterious smile, she turned and went to her own work. Jane Mo sighed helplessly and touched the kiss mark... Suddenly, she felt a trace of warmth in her heart, with helplessness. The sound of high-heeled shoes hitting the ground rhythmically interrupted Jane Mo''s thoughts. She subconsciously looked up and saw a woman in a beige windbreaker and sunglasses that almost covered half of her face standing in front of her. "I heard... You have a designer here who participated in the design of the emperor club?" The voice of arrogance and hiss overflowed the flame and red lips, showing disdain. Jian Mo looked at Luo Xiaotong and immediately frowned. Sun Ke has come over, "Hello, what can I do for you, miss?" Luo Xiaotong tore off his sunglasses, stared at Sun Ke obliquely, looked at Jian Mo and said, "I have a house to design, just you!" "Sorry, I''m not free!" Jane Mo said that she had picked up the design drawing just handed over to her by Mo Xiaoya and planned to go to the design drawing room to modify the design draft. Luo Xiaotong was directly ignored by Jian Mo, and was so angry that he broke his work, "Jian Mo, if your design is not empty, you will be free when you go to a man''s bed?" Chapter 159 Because of the recent scandal between Jian Mo and Su Jun, although the engineering design department doesn''t gossip and guess like other departments. However, they are all curious When Luo Xiaotong said this sentence in a domineering manner, everyone involuntarily looked in the direction of Jian mo. Mo Xiaoya frowned slightly. She just found a kiss mark in Jian Mo''s neck. Now this woman came to accuse... No, is this woman Su Junli''s person? Jane Mo''s face was calm and calm, and her beautiful big eyes looked at Luo Xiaotong, "does it have anything to do with you?" Luo Xiaotong was stunned by Jian Mo''s gradually deep eyes. Just when he wanted to say something, he saw Jian Mo saying, "speak quickly, you speak quickly, I beg you... Just waiting for someone to say!" A pair of facial expressions, immediately remembered that time in lanzeyuan villa, Jane Mo said to her! Hum, I want to expose the affair with Beichen from her mouth, Jian mo... You dream! Luo Xiaotong looked proud, as if he had guessed Jian Mo''s mind and felt that he was really too smart Jian Mo is disappointed in her eyes, but cold in her heart... Luo Xiaotong is so brain crippled. Did her father make it? "Jian Mo," Luo Xiaotong walked forward slowly with his arms around his chest, "it has nothing to do with me... But can''t your company appoint a designer? I''ll appoint you!" Jane Mo smiled and nodded falsely, "yes... You can specify, but I also have the right to refuse!" She looked at Luo Xiaotong with a lovely smile, "no way, your noble temperament, I really can''t design a house that can set off you..." Luo Xiaotong was praised by Jian Mo, and he was happy in his heart, even on his face. However, when she saw Jian Mo looking at her with a pair of contemptuous eyes, she reacted. Jian Mo said irony At that moment, Luo Xiaotong was so angry that he said in a harsh voice: "Jane Mo, what do you mean? Do you mean I don''t deserve your design or something?" Jane looked innocent. "That''s what you said... Not me!" She didn''t want to chat with mentally retarded children and said, "our company has many excellent designers. Miss Luo, please find someone else. Excuse me!" Without giving Luo Xiaotong a chance to speak, Jian Mo has gone to the designer For the only person outside who knew he was with Gu Beichen, Jian Mo really felt that Luo Xiaotong and her paragraph number were not at the same level, and she had no sense of achievement. Luo Xiaotong hid in place angrily. She just wanted to scold, then looked around and saw that everyone in the office looked at her like a good play... Suddenly, she returned all her embarrassment to Jane mo. Luo Xiaotong gnashed his teeth and looked at Jian Mo''s back and said, "wait..." then she stamped her high heels and walked out. People from other departments were watching jokes outside. When Luo Xiaotong came out, someone came forward and asked mysteriously, "who did Jane go to bed with?" Luo Xiaotong glanced at the woman and then looked at Jian mo At the right time, Jian Mo also turned his head. There was no tension on his face. Even Luo Xiaotong saw the expectation. "Hum," Luo Xiaotong snorted coldly, proudly picked his chin and said to Jian Mo, "I won''t let you do what you want!" She said, glancing sideways at the curious woman, "what''s none of your business?" Luo Xiaotong snorted and then walked away with arrogant steps "Bah!" The woman sneered, "one or two goods thought they were capable!" Jane Mo glanced at the gossip woman, sneered at the corners of her mouth, pushed the door of the design room and went in Jian MOTU just changed a little and received a call from Yu Ziyun, saying that she had a personal design to answer and asked the person to come to her. She didn''t think much about it, but when she saw Luo Xiaotong standing in front of her with a proud look, Jian Mo felt that there was a kind of woman in the world, so she liked to be unhappy, and then thought she was very powerful! "My house is in Yudu apartment..." Luo Xiaotong looked proud and even said proudly, "Beichen gave it to me!" Jane Mo didn''t change her face, but glanced at the composition and address of the eye frame, "Yo, neighbors with Lu man?" Luo Xiaotong suddenly changed his face, "what are you talking about?" "Did I say anything?" Jian Mo looked up at Luo Xiaotong innocently, "Oh, I''ll just say it casually. Didn''t he also send Lu man a Yudu apartment?" Luo Xiaotong''s eyes widened and his face was unbelievable. She bought the house herself, and then deliberately asked Jane Mo to annoy her... This is also because she saw the news of the emperor club a few days ago. Others don''t know. She knows that Jane Mo must be able to sleep with her! However, she didn''t expect to buy it next door to Lu man! Jian Mo looked at Luo Xiaotong with pure eyes, looked at her changeable face, and hissed coldly, "do you want the same style as Lu man or something?" She said calmly, "I heard that ah Chen likes Lu man''s design very much!" Luo Xiaotong twitched at the corners of his mouth and pulled over the architectural drawing, "I can''t see your design... I won''t find your company!" Then she got up and turned to leave. At the right time, a bell rang from Jane Mo''s mobile phone Jian Mo took a look and saw that it was Gu Beichen and didn''t answer... It wasn''t until Luo Xiaotong went out and stared at her. "So long to answer?" Gu Beichen''s indifferent voice came with some dissatisfaction. Jane Mo smiled at the corner of her mouth, "there''s no way. Her husband''s little lovers have come to the company... They have to be solved!" Gu Beichen frowned at the moment, meditated and said, "Luo Xiaotong?" "Yo, it''s worthy of being a person who spent time with her husband in a high-end and high-grade hotel..." Jane Mo said with greasy mouth, "I remember very clearly!" Gu beichenjunyan sank and didn''t explain. He also knew that Jian Mo didn''t believe Luo Xiaotong really had anything with him, "elder sister, have you prepared a birthday gift?" Jian Mo was stunned at first, then murmured, "I... forgot!" At the end of last night, it seems that he mentioned that today is Gu Cisheng''s Day "Let Xiao Jing prepare..." Gu Beichen said calmly, "I''ll pick you up in Runze garden after work." "Well, good!" Jane answered. Now she has talked with Chu Zixiao, and her heart has indeed changed. Jian Mo doesn''t go to Gu Ci''s house as much as she used to resist However, Jane Mo, who is immersed in joy at the moment, never thought that joy begets sorrow so quickly! As soon as Gu Beichen hung up the phone, the vibration of his mobile phone came through... When he saw it was Li Jinxi, he frowned slightly and suddenly remembered what she wanted to say last night in heaven night. Picked up the phone and put it in his ear. Gu Beichen said softly, "huh?" Li Jinxi sat in the swivel chair and gently picked a dissatisfied arc at the end of his eyebrow. "Gu Beichen, you really don''t want to know the reason why ah Chu left five years ago?" Chapter 160 Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep. "I don''t want to, I don''t need to know from others..." his eagle eyes narrowed slightly, "Jinxi, if I go to check, I really can''t find it?" Li Jinxi frowned, "what do you mean?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips were slightly chilly and wiped complex emotions. He said faintly, "I want her to say it myself..." "But have you ever thought that she has difficulties and can''t say it?" Li Jinxi asked angrily. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were immediately deep and bottomless, "if so, there''s no need to say... What else can''t be faced together between the two people, it can only show that they haven''t come to the step of facing together..." "But ah Chu..." Li Jinxi just spoke. After the "drop" sound came from Gu Beichen''s internal telephone, Susan''s calm and capable voice came, "Chen Shao, lawyer Mo has arrived." Gu Beichen took off his mobile phone and cut off the "um" response from the internal line. Then he said to Li Jinxi, "I''ll go to the meeting and talk about something later..." before Li Jinxi spoke, he had already hung up the phone. Now JK''s business is stuck. Mo Shaochen and the whole imperial lawyer group are all in full readiness. They only wait for the last minute to wholly acquire JK... There can be no mistake here. "If it can be done here," Mo Shaochen pushed a piece of information to Gu Beichen. "The acquisition of JK is almost a certainty." Gu Beichen glanced at Mo Shaochen and said, "are you sure?" Mo Shaochen nodded, "as long as I finish here, I can make JK have no chance of winning." The emperor''s lawyers nodded one by one. In this contact, they finally saw the power of Mo Shaochen, a famous debater with zero failure rate since he joined the industry. This person''s mind is so meticulous that people can''t catch up with his brain circuit at all. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, and after reading the information, he put forward several doubts... Listening to the explanation of the lawyer group and Mo Shaochen, he was obviously a little depressed. After the meeting, Mo Shaochen returned to the office with Gu Beichen. "Don''t you look very happy?" Mo Shaochen asked, but he was sure that a pair of sharp eyes seemed to penetrate Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen went to the wine cabinet, took out two goblets, poured wine respectively, handed them to Mo Shaochen and said, "what am I worried about... You don''t know?" "Are you afraid of Xiaochu''s participation?" Gu Beichen''s cold face was full of emotions that people couldn''t understand. The eagle''s eyes were slightly deep and didn''t say anything. Mo Shaochen looked at him and said, "don''t say that Shen Hangzhi won''t let Xiaochu participate... It''s about you, and Xiaochu won''t either." Gu Beichen still didn''t speak. Mo Shaochen was slightly silent and asked, "Beichen, if... Xiaochu participated in this matter, would you stop?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Mo Shaochen deeply. He just scratched a little on one side of his thin lips. If there was something like nothing, it made people feel some seeping smile... There was no answer! Until later, when Mo Shaochen recalled today''s question, he suddenly felt that he had asked too stupid The emperor''s president''s office is dignified, and Li Jinxi''s call to Shen Chu is also a trace of treachery. "Ah Chu, have you ever thought of telling Beichen directly?" Li Jinxi rolled his eyes angrily, "I don''t understand you two. Obviously one doesn''t want to see this go on, and obviously the other wants to know the truth... But it happens that you''re all dead!" Shen Chu stood in front of the floor to ceiling window of the villa. The morning sunshine was projected onto her through the clean glass window, bringing a warm atmosphere to the late autumn morning. "Jinxi, one of the two people must step back," said Shen Chu with a self deprecating smile. "I left five years ago. No matter what reason, I was always wrong..." "So you have to explain!" Shen Chu looked at the sparrow flying out of the window and gently hooked the corner of his mouth, "I will." Li Jinxi listened to Shen Chu''s soft concession and said with relief: "well, I''m waiting for the good news from you and Beichen..." "Good!" Shen Chu answered and hung up after saying a few more words. Just for a moment, Shen Chu''s face was gradually covered with a layer of ice cold like frost. Her beautiful eyes narrowed slightly and her hands... Gradually clenched up. "Miss," said Aunt Guang, the housekeeper at the right time, "the master just called and asked you to go to the company." Shen Chu answered, turned and went upstairs to change his clothes When the sapphire blue Maserati rowed out of the Shen family villa with a cool roar, a low-key black car started and followed far behind until Maserati turned into the underground parking lot of JK building. When the man in the black car looked at Maserati''s tail disappearing around the corner, he dialed the phone, "Shen Chu entered JK..." ¡­¡­ After work, Jian Mo went directly back to the Runze park. After changing her clothes, she received a call from Gu Beichen, saying that she was waiting in the underground parking lot. Hurriedly got off the elevator, and Jian Mo hurriedly walked to the Bentley opened by Gu Beichen these two days Gu Beichen looked at the approaching figure from the reversing mirror, and the corners of his mouth gradually put on a smile... That smile reached the bottom of his eyes in an instant. JK seems to be busy at this moment, but it seems that everything has become dull "So anxious," Gu Beichen said softly, "can''t wait to see first love?" Jane Mo turned her eyes by Gu Beichen''s teasing voice, "correct!" She pulled a hypocritical smile at the corner of her mouth, "if I want to see my first love, I don''t need my husband to lead the way!" "..." Gu Beichen was joking, but listening to Jian Mo''s retort, he suddenly felt that he was not beautiful for a moment. Jian Mo felt Gu Beichen''s mistake. After secretly feigning, she went forward and circled his arm, and then kissed him on the face, "it''s just... A good husband with good face and good work. What''s the ghost of first love?" In a word, Gu Beichen was happy again. "It''s quite insightful!" Jian Mo secretly despised Gu Beichen and felt that as an emperor and president who could stamp his feet and make the economy unstable, he was so vain... It was really bad! The truth is, good as it is! The car drove all the way to Lishan villa... Chu Zixiao, dressed in casual clothes, leaned against a tree trunk and looked at the car driving in with far-reaching eyes. The autumn wind rustled and swept away the old leaves of a tree, which fell on his periphery and suddenly felt bleak. The car stopped in the parking space, and Jian Mo and Gu Beichen got off the car together. Chu Zixiao got up and came forward... A pair of sharp and deep eyes looked at Jian Mo tightly. Jian Mo didn''t see Chu Zixiao because of the angle. She just opened the back door and said, "ah Chen, are you sure elder sister likes this gift?" Chu Zixiao''s footsteps suddenly stagnated, and the corners of his mouth gradually drew an embarrassing arc... If it hadn''t been for the thing two years ago, Momo should have asked his mother to be his mother, not his eldest sister! What a ridiculous title "Mom asked me to pick you up!" Chu Zixiao opened his mouth and ignored the warning from the bottom of his eyes when Gu Beichen looked at him with deep eyes. Jian Mo suddenly looked back in a daze and just looked at Chu Zixiao Chapter 161 Just for a moment, Jian Mo took back her sight... She didn''t want chu Zixiao to misunderstand, and didn''t want to get angry with Gu Beichen because of this. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered with a faint smile on his thin lips, and then stepped forward with Jane mo. Jian Mo felt that there was something strange between the two people. After looking at Beichen''s cold side face, she looked at Chu Zixiao... Just right at him and looked at her deeply. Jane Mo was surprised in her heart, hurriedly restrained her eyes, pretended to be nothing and entered the house with Gu Beichen. Today''s birthday party has only two families. Everyone knows what purpose they want Gu CI asks Gu Beichen to bring Jian Mo home, so they will not invite others... They all know that Gu Beichen''s wife is Jian Mo, and Gu Beichen doesn''t want to make it public! Jane Mo ate quietly, as usual. Jane Mo can''t figure it out. Gu Ci and Chu Tian Qin Mingming know that they can''t get a good deal from Gu Beichen. Why do they fantasize that Gu Beichen will let go again and again? However, it has nothing to do with her. She just needs to eat well and find a balance between Chu Zixiao and Gu Beichen. After dinner, Gu Chi pulled Jane''s hand and said, "in the first two days, I went to France to see a perfume that was especially suitable for you, and bought it back... I''ll take you to get it." Jane nodded in a liberal and dignified manner, then looked at Beichen and said, "I''ll go up with my eldest sister to get perfume." Gu Beichen nodded, but Chu Zixiao''s eyes were dark Such a title once again hurt Chu Zixiao''s heart. The suffocation feeling that his lover was in front of him, but there was a gap that could not be crossed controlled his mood. "As a lawyer," Gu Beichen''s indifferent voice came faintly, "self-control is the most basic." Chu Zixiao took back his sight on Jian Mo, looked at Gu Beichen and got up, "you and dad have something to talk about, I''ll go out first..." the words fell, and the others had turned calmly. Chu tianqin didn''t find anything wrong with Chu Zixiao. After he went out, he said to Gu Beichen, "Gu CI transferred the emperor''s shares to Zixiao this time. That''s what his father meant... Beichen, don''t blame your eldest sister." Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently hooked a curve like nothing and didn''t speak. Because Gu Beichen is the son of Gu Moyuan, Chu Tian and Qin Zuzu are 20 years older than him. Now in his middle age, Chu tianqin, who has also been ups and downs in the mall for half his life, always feels that he has lost his momentum when facing Gu Beichen. "In any case, Chu helped the emperor at the beginning, but now..." said Qin Yuyan. Gu Beichen''s smile deepened a little, but that kind of smile remained rigid in the corners of his mouth and never spread. "When talking about shares that day, my elder sister was talking about it." Gu Beichen hissed at the cold eyes and said, "now... My brother-in-law has changed his way of speaking again." Chu tianqin was looked at by Gu Beichen''s indifferent eyes, and his heart was hairy "Well, how can the emperor or the emperor affect me?" "..." Chu Tian and Qin quickly said, "I don''t mean that! Beichen, I..." "I won''t help Chu this time. It''s still that sentence. I have the ability... Welcome to the emperor!" Gu Beichen forced Chu tianqin''s words back, and then got up, "the hole of Chu family can''t always be paid by the emperor!" He glanced at Chu tianqin and then walked out with one hand. Chu tianqin''s face was dignified, his mouth opened and closed several times, and he didn''t speak again. Gu Beichen wants to swallow the Chu family. Everyone knows it and has endured it for two years... He doesn''t know. Just Chu Tian Qin''s eyes darkened. In the end, Chu was his painstaking efforts. If he had to... He didn''t mind talking about things by Yujing lake! In the bedroom, Jane foam smells like perfume, and love it. It''s love it at least. "Little Jane..." Gu CI said, "how''s it going with Beichen recently?" "OK." Jane Mo said, her eyes overflowing with sweet emotions. I used to pretend, but this time it comes from my heart When Gu CI saw it, he turned around and said, "I heard... You want to participate in the design of the emperor club. Beichen made an exception for you?" When it comes to this matter, Jane Mo is a little astringent and wants to refute... But it is a fact. Seeing Jian Mo''s acquiescence, Gu CI smiled and sat down beside her. "Xiao Jian, anyway... Chu''s family and the emperor are also relatives. Although this project involves a lot, it''s safe to leave it to their own people, isn''t it?" Jane Mo heard Gu Ci''s meaning and didn''t break it. She just nodded at the corners of her mouth. "Beichen is special to you. He will help your brother-in-law speak later... Huh?" Jian Mo "ha ha" said, "elder sister, ah Chen, you don''t know what temperament... You have a strong principle. You don''t listen, let alone me." "Don''t belittle yourself..." Gu CI pulled Jian Mo''s hand. "They are all a family. Who doesn''t help them?" Jian Mo looked at Gu Ci''s expectant eyes and didn''t refuse again... She just answered with a bolt. Gu Ci and Chu tianqin were stuck together before and after the obvious failure It''s just a project, but Jian Mo doesn''t understand it, as if this project is related to Chu''s life and death? Moreover, I don''t know why, Jane Mo always feels that things are not so simple on the surface. Chu Zixiao stood in front of a colorful chrysanthemum garden in the depressed garden, "is it over?" He saw Gu Beichen''s dignified face and light smile. "Dad said something about two years ago?" Gu Beichen frowned, "how do you know?" "Why don''t I know?" Chu Zixiao smiled and said with an indifferent face and no superfluous expression, "I just think... The emperor is so big, and things by the Yujing Lake still need someone to carry the black pot." There was a touch of tentative emotion in the depths of his eyes Tang Yu participated in the Chu''s lawyer group, and the information given to him last time was different... Two years ago, the accident on the Bank of Yujing lake, was Chu''s black pot or was the emperor behind it? If you remember correctly... Beichen was already the president of emperor group at the time of the accident! Gu Beichen slightly frowned: "think you have another chip to talk to me?" "Beichen..." Chu Zixiao shouted, and his eyes fell far ahead. "Chu, I don''t care! I don''t care about the emperor''s 5% stake... Even I don''t care about your things. I just want Jian Mo!" At the same time, Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen He didn''t know whether his little uncle knew the relationship between Jian Mo and Jian Zhanfeng. He thought... If he knew, the wife would not be Jian Mo? Gu Beichen''s thin lips shallow raised an arc, "I also said that no matter whether I and Jian Mo can''t divorce, shares are not a condition of exchange." "Really?" Chu Zixiao turned around and looked over Gu Beichen to see Jian Mo coming, "so... Jian Mo is more important than shares?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly cold and didn''t answer! Two things are not in the same direction. Which comes from which is important? Chu Zixiao pretended not to see Jian Mo and asked, "don''t talk about this..." he paused slightly and asked vaguely, "what if we talked about the Yujing lake two years ago?" Jian Mo''s footsteps suddenly stagnated. By the Yujing lake two years ago? Her head crashed, her eyes gradually overflowed, and she looked at Gu Beichen urgently. Even her breathing became condensed because of tension Chapter 162 Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen with some difficulty. She could only see one-third of his side face from her angle Didn''t emperor group start to participate in the construction of Yujing lake last year? What happened by Yujing lake two years ago... What does Zixiao mean? Jane Mo''s eyelashes trembled slightly, and even her heart gradually mentioned to her throat... She waited for Gu Beichen to speak, expecting to know whether the matter two years ago was as far as that with her father, but subconsciously she was afraid to know. Gu Beichen looked at Chu Zixiao and smiled lightly. "Zixiao, whether it''s shares or the thing in your mouth, Jian mo... Can''t be compared with each other, okay?" Then he immediately turned around and looked at Jian Mo with eagle eyes... She looked a little ugly and embarrassed! At the moment she came over, he already knew that Zixiao wanted her to hear the harm from his mouth, so... He did what Zixiao wanted. The relationship between him and Jian Mo began with interests, but he didn''t want to end with interests. "There is no connection between the two things..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and said, "shares, I want! I''ll settle the previous things... But whether I''m divorced or not, it has nothing to do with these two things!" Gu Beichen said and looked sideways at Chu Zixiao. "She is still my Gu Beichen''s wife and your Chu Zixiao''s little aunt... This is a fact whether you want to accept it or not." His eyes converged, and Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was filled with awe inspiring domineering, "this is the first and last time... I don''t like what threatens me!" Chu Zixiao mockingly hooked up the lower lip corner, but he didn''t know whether he was laughing at Gu Beichen or self mocking, "Beichen, I... Never oppose you. But my life... Has only one simple mo." Gu Beichen "brushed", and his eyes slid sharply to Chu Zixiao, "in such a place and in front of her, do you think it''s appropriate for you to say this to me...?" His voice had cooled down, and his whole body was more thorough and fierce. Jane Mo pursed her lips and big eyes. She looked innocently at Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao... Although she was the female owner of the incident, why did she feel like she was shot while lying down? "Look at her and go to Beimo," she said Jane Mo nodded and felt that it was a mistake for Gu Ci to call them to dinner tonight... Not only did they feel upset, but she also added to the blockage when she mentioned the matter by Yujing lake two years ago. "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo looked sideways at Gu Beichen who was about to start the car and asked, "just... What did Zixiao mean by Yujing lake?" Gu Beichen sank his face, "don''t call me so intimate!" "..." Jian Mo was stunned and didn''t react. What did Gu Beichen mean, "what''s so intimate?" Gu Beichen''s face suddenly became a haze. After glancing sideways at Jian Mo, he didn''t say anything. He just started the car and left Lishan villa Jane Mo didn''t want to understand Gu Beichen''s words all the way? He won''t let her ask about Yujing lake? Trade secrets involved? "Ah Chen, that..." Jane Mo struggled for a long time before she finally figured out what Gu Beichen meant. "You said not to be so intimate... Is it ''Zixiao''?" Gu Beichen ignored Jian Mo and looked proud and charming. Jian Mo glanced and secretly feigned Gu Beichen: even if it''s not the first love, it''s also your nephew. You can''t call Gu Beichen his nephew? Jane Mo became more and more depressed. She wanted to know what Chu Zixiao said two years ago... At that time, her father accidentally fell off a building, but why did her father go to the construction site so late? "Ah Chen, what happened by Yujing lake two years ago..." before Jian Mo finished asking, the car phone rang. Gu Beichen calmly picked it up, and there came the voice of the Dragon owl, "do you have time?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo on one side, "just came out with Jian Mo from the elder sister..." The Dragon owl was silent at first and then said, "come to me when you are free!" "Good!" Gu Beichen answered and hung up. Jane Mo thought that things by Yujing lake had been blocked enough. Now she heard that the Dragon owl wanted to stop talking because of her, and her heart immediately mentioned to her throat It''s said that a thief is afraid to say. Now it''s her! Last night, Gu Beichen said that devil''s kiss was the territory of the Dragon owl. Even... He doesn''t need to contact in advance to go there to find the Dragon owl. It''s likely that the Dragon owl is basically there! So, here''s the problem Last night, she went to devil''s kiss to find the black boss and took Jian Chang away. Did the Dragon owl know? The background of the Dragon owl is a little complicated. Jian Mo knows it. Did he ask the black boss why she used to be? The more you think about it, the more depressed Jane Mo is... Then, she feels the pain of convulsion and spasm in her stomach. Jian Mo secretly bit her gums and endured it. If she had a sudden stomachache today, Gu Beichen, such a smart person, would find something wrong with her "That..." Jane Mo felt that her back was wet with sweat because of tension. "If you want something, just put me at the entrance of the subway." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, "don''t worry, I''ll send you back first." Jane Mo pursed her lower lip and felt mixed in her heart. For fear that Gu Beichen would go to find the Dragon owl and say something about her. "That..." Jian Mo grinned and looked at Gu Beichen, then fanned his bewitching eyes and said, "if I keep you willfully, will you stay?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips scratched a thin smile and faintly said, "Hey, you seem to stick to me these two days?" He asked deliberately. Jane Mo glanced. "Of course... You''re my husband!" She came with a glib lie. "Xiao Yan will go to the East China Sea to deal with some things tomorrow." Xiao Yan will go back to the East China Sea and smile with him today. " As soon as Jian Mo listened, it was not easy to continue to say anything... Talking too much caused Gu Beichen''s suspicion. What if the Dragon owl didn''t come to him for her? Didn''t you ask for trouble yourself? With a fluke in mind, Jane Mo got out of the car in Runze Park and looked at Bentley, whose whole face collapsed Gu Beichen went to the third floor to find the Dragon owl after arriving at devil''skiss. Most of the time, the Dragon owl will be here in devil''skiss in Los Angeles. When the Dragon owl saw Gu Beichen coming in, he motioned for everyone in the room to go out and asked, "what to drink?" "Whatever..." The Dragon owl took the wine mixer and began to mix wine. After a while, a cup of wine mixed with dark blue to white gradient was put in front of Gu Beichen. "I accidentally knew two things... One is Shen Chu''s, the other is Jian Mo''s. which one should I listen to first?" Chapter 163 Gu Beichen frowned slightly and said calmly, "Jane Mo''s?" He said softly, obviously surprised The Dragon owl nodded his head calmly. There was no expression on his cold face. He just took the washed wine mixer and mixed himself a glass of wine. "Last night, er Jianmo came to devil''s kiss." "I brought her here, but I left when I got to the door..." Gu Beichen didn''t think it was the matter. The Dragon owl''s ink pupil was deep. "I mean before... More than seven o''clock!" "..." Gu Beichen Lin said to Junyan, "what is she doing here?" Devil''skiss is a dark bar. Even those who don''t know where to go know that ordinary people can''t come here Here, there are unexpected traps waiting for you at any time. It is very likely that life is heaven before you step in, and life will fall into hell after you come in. Jane Mo doesn''t know devil''skiss is not where she can come! "What is she doing here?" Gu Beichen asked with a light frown in his eagle eyes. "Come to see Shen Hao who is active in Nancheng..." Gu Beichen frowned deeper. "How can Jane Mo have anything to do with him?" "For the people below, it''s for Jane truss..." the Dragon owl spoke indifferently. Gu Beichen slightly put on a cold smile at the corner of his mouth, which was as cold as the cold from hell, "it seems... I didn''t teach enough last time!" Then Gu Beichen suddenly frowned on his sword eyebrow... Was this why Jane Mo asked for 500000 yesterday? Gu Beichen doesn''t understand that Jian Mo''s temperament will not encourage Jian Chang to do this... How can he take out the money? But on second thought, it''s my brother. I can''t watch others kill me! "People don''t have a memory when they don''t hurt..." the Dragon owl said faintly. He didn''t deal with Jane Mo''s car crash last time, but he listened to it roughly. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes slightly narrowed a dangerous arc, and then asked, "what''s the matter with Shen Chu?" The Dragon owl''s eyes dropped slightly on the liquor in his hands, and the corners of his mouth slightly hooked up with a deep smile and said slowly: "what happened five years ago... Do you want to know?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips were filled with a cold radian. The eagle''s eyes looked slightly up at the light of the eyes raised by the Dragon owl and said, "I don''t need anyone to say something five years ago..." "Still waiting for Shen Chu to say?" Dragon owl light EH. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil gradually became familiar with it. He opened his thin lips and said slowly, "I know what happened five years ago... I''m just waiting for her to tell me!" The Dragon owl frowned... Everyone thought Beichen was tangled at the beginning, but now it seems... Not at all. The night is always addictive, but the late autumn night is full of a trace of cold, full of bleak and desolation under the city. Shen Chu sat in the corner of yuehuacheng business coffee shop. A latte was completely cold, but he never took a sip. "Are you sure no one will know?" The woman sitting opposite Shen Chu pursed her lower lip and asked. Shen Chu smiled, "you can''t do it, and I won''t force you..." she gracefully but proudly picked Xiumei, "but you can''t take the check in front of you..." she smiled, but there was no emotion and temperature. "Do you think so?" The woman opposite seemed to be very tangled. She kept clenching and loosening her hand on her knee... Several times back and forth, as if she were trying to figure out whether to take the check or not. However, the above amount is too attractive... This is the money she can''t make in her life! As soon as she gritted her teeth, the woman suddenly raised her hand and pressed it on the check, "OK!" She said in a frozen voice, "it''s all done anyway. It seems a little late to regret at the moment." Shen Chu smiled and said, "don''t worry, no one will know..." The woman nodded, then got up and left with her bag Just after the woman left, Shen Chu rang the call bell and asked the waiter to come and change her a cup of coffee. In this world, no one can hold his head high in front of interests... Just because the reality is always so cruel! Shen Chu picked up the coffee and took a sip. The bitterness in her mouth was a trace of smooth milk... She left passively and didn''t take the initiative to come back! However, if you want to seize your destiny, you have to face the difficulties. The next day, when the sun languidly sprinkled its not warm light and fell on every corner of Los Angeles, it represented the arrival of a new day. Jian Mo was worried that Gu Beichen went to the Dragon owl because of his own business and didn''t sleep well. But in the morning, she didn''t receive his phone call or text message, so she was a little relieved. Since there are no mistakes in everything, Jane is in a good mood again. She goes to work after washing... Just waiting for her is always an accident! Some people have said that life is a stack of problems... Solve one, and the next is definitely waiting for you to solve! After a busy morning, we were already studying what to eat for lunch when it was close to the noon break. Some people said that there was a restaurant next to the company. It tasted great and we made an appointment to eat together... When we were studying whether to go out to eat or directly order takeout, Sun Ke answered the phone and suddenly looked dignified and ugly. "What''s the matter?" Ding Dang looked at Sun Ke curiously and asked. Sun Ke didn''t put down the microphone, but looked at Jian mo Jane Mo looked left and right in a daze. Finally, she looked at Sun Ke suspiciously and asked, "what''s the matter? What''s the matter?" Sun Ke opened his mouth and didn''t know what to say. Finally, he just said, "the director asked you to find him." Jian Mo didn''t think so. After answering the voice, she went to Tang Haoyang As soon as she left, she couldn''t bear to be late and hurriedly asked, "sister sun, what''s the matter?" Sun Ke shook her head with a dignified face. The matter has not been confirmed, and she can''t spread anything. When people see Sun Ke''s face, they know it''s not a good thing... Jane Mo has been haunted by all kinds of villains recently, and everyone is a little worried. "Dong Dong!" "Come in!" Tang Haoyang looked at the magazine in his hand and his face was very dark. Jane Mo pushed the door and went in. "Director, are you looking for me?" Tang Haoyang raised his eyes, looked at Jian Mo with a complex look, and then threw the magazine in his hand in front of her, "look..." he tried to keep himself calm. Jane Mo picked up the magazine, looked at Tang Haoyang suspiciously, and then looked at the magazine... But in a few seconds, she suddenly stared like a copper bell. "Someone copied my design? Is it so blatant?" Jane Mo was surprised and doubted. Tang Haoyang''s face was still dark, because he knew Jian Mo, so he said with forbearance, "look at the date of the magazine!" Jane Mo turned to the cover now. The date on it was last month... Intuitively, it was not someone else who copied her design, but she who copied others? "Jian Mo, how big is the emperor club?" Tang Haoyang said, "do you know that once the design of the imperial club is exposed, someone will tell you about your plagiarism?" Chapter 164 "I didn''t copy!" Jian Mo then opened his mouth, frowned and looked at Tang Haoyang, with a face of intransigence. "I don''t know when this magazine was, and I haven''t seen it at all... The design of the emperor club was completed by me alone from beginning to end!" Tang Haoyang listened to Jian Mo, when she sank her face, pointed to the magazine in her hand and asked, "how do you explain this?" Jane Mo looked at the cover of the magazine. It was published in a city at least 1000 kilometers away from Los Angeles... She had never heard of the magazine. Jane Mo is very aggrieved. She knows whether she copied her. But... The date of other people''s magazine is indeed last month. Before she participated in the comparison... It doesn''t make sense anywhere! Tang Haoyang angrily tapped his finger on his desk and said with a gloomy face: "Jian Mo, you just took the UCL application. Do you know... If this matter is exposed, it will affect not only Xiangyu, but also your future!" The more he said, the more angry he was, and he stood up directly. "Plagiarism will become a stain on you all your life!" Jane Mo pursed her lips, clenched her teeth and said, "director, your suspicion is an insult to a designer..." she clutched the magazine. "I''ll find a way to check this matter... I don''t believe that there are similar people in the world, and there can be a gap of only a month before and after, so you can design people with basically similar designs!" Then she took a deep look at Tang Haoyang and turned out of the director''s office with the magazine. If Jian Mo plagiarizes, Tang Haoyang doesn''t believe it... She came from the architectural design department of Luoda and is his younger sister. After two years of contact, he still knows about Jian mo... He has many ideas and ideas. He is a gifted person who is rewarded by God. However, anyway... Jian Mo even hit the idea this time, but the sequence of dates is untenable. Because of the fear of influence, Tang Haoyang didn''t report to Yu Ziyun about Jian Mo''s "plagiarism". Now the whole company let slip on him and Sun Ke who answered the phone because he was angry. After coming out of Tang Haoyang''s office, Jian Mo was in no mood to eat... She just stuffed the magazine into her bag, and the whole person was not well. Xiangwan and others thought that Jane Mo had been scolded. They came to comfort her one by one, and then said to bring her food back to eat. Jane Mo had no appetite and wanted to say no more... But in due time, Gu Beichen''s cold hiss came to her mind the night before yesterday, saying that she had a meal and wanted to look at it with her children. Finally, she nodded. However, Jian Mo only reluctantly took a few bites when she brought back the meal. "Sister mo..." Xiang night suddenly jumped over, "the emperor said that the final draft should be handed in next Monday!" Jane Mo nodded. A touch of complex emotion slipped through her eyes, but it was hidden in an instant One afternoon, Jian Mo''s mind was on the "plagiarism" incident. He sat in the design room and didn''t draw a picture for half a day. Jane Mo put down the drawing pen and lay back in the chair. She took her mobile phone and sent a text message to Li Xiaoyue. In the past: do you have time after work? Li Xiaoyue quickly replied: Yes! Jane Mo: shall we have dinner together in the evening? Li Xiaoyue answered, and then they made an appointment in Nanxiang building. After work, Jian Mo didn''t drive back to Runze park. She took a taxi and went to Nanxiang building There was a music radio station in the taxi, which just mentioned that Su Junli was going to attend a charity concert in city A. coincidentally, the magazine "design perspective" was in city A. "Here we are, miss!" The driver stopped the car and reminded Jane Mo that she hadn''t moved for a long time. Jian Mo suddenly regained consciousness, hurriedly paid the fare and got off the bus... This person can''t think about it. Just heard Su Junli''s report, he met him in Nanxiang building. "Alone?" Su Jun asked with a warm smile. Jane Mo smiled, "and friends!" Then she pursed her lips and asked, "just heard the report that you''re going to city a? Why didn''t you mention it before?" "It was decided temporarily... A friend''s charity concert to play Encore!" Su Junli''s voice is always calm and comfortable. "Oh..." Jane Mo answered and bolted in her mouth. She wanted to say something, but swallowed it back. "Well, I''ll... Go up first!" Su Jun nodded, and a pair of clear eyes that looked into people''s hearts without waves never left Jian Mo from beginning to end I can see something''s wrong with Jane! Moreover, it is also related to the city a he is going to! "Mo Mo..." Su Junli shouted to Jian Mo when she was about to go up the stairs. "There are several predecessors in the music industry in this concert. Are you interested in going to listen to them together?" Jian Mo looked at Su Junli and suddenly a trace of joy overflowed in her eyes, "good!" No matter what''s going on, she needs to go to the magazine in city a to find out... And meet the designer. Su Jun nodded with a smile, "is it OK to book a plane around seven tomorrow weekend?" "OK, let''s have an airport round... I''ll go straight after work." Jane Moying looked at Su Junli with some gratitude... I don''t know why, it seems that every time she has a problem, he is by her side unexpectedly? "What are you thinking? I can''t see you waving?" Li Xiaoyue frowned and asked when she saw Jian Mo''s look of being in a state of being in a state of being out of her mind. Jian Mo sat down opposite her and said today''s thing after ordering. "From the perspective of time, I almost feel like I''m plagiarizing..." Li Xiaoyue, a lawyer, frowned as she listened to Jian Mo''s statement and looked at the contents of the magazine. "You really can''t stand it at all!" She frowned. "What did your husband say?" After all, it is the design of the emperor''s club. In the end, it will not only have an impact, but also the Emperor "He went to Donghai city..." Jian Mo said angrily, "I''m going to go to city a tomorrow!" "I''ll go with you." Li Xiaoyue said immediately. Jane Mo shook her head. "You''ve piled up several cases recently... I just wanted to see if there were any mistakes in the magazine this time. If not, the problem will be serious this time!" Li Xiaoyue frowned at the magazine. "How did your director get this magazine?" She suddenly asked, "it was a month ago..." Jane Mo was stunned and shook her head with some epiphany. "I was depressed and angry at that time, so I didn''t ask!" She seemed to see a glimmer of hope, "I''ll ask first when I go to work tomorrow." Li Xiaoyue nodded and put the magazine away for Jane morrang... It doesn''t explode now. It''s better to be careful. Otherwise, the pen of the media can be said to be true even if it is false. Looking back, even if you find the truth, Jane Mo has been abandoned "Now it''s best to solve the problem before the intentional person finds out, otherwise it''s really worrying!" Li Xiaoyue frowned and worried. Said Jane Mo plagiarized, killed her and didn''t believe it! Jane Mo drooped her shoulders. "Hope..." her voice was a little heavy, "I don''t know why, I''m very upset at the moment!" Chapter 165 Li Xiaoyue can understand Jian Mo''s mood at the moment... Everyone is upset when it falls on anyone. If you really plagiarize or learn from it, it''s OK, but no! A meal Jian Mo ate tasteless. Li Xiaoyue couldn''t comfort her even with a lawyer''s mouth. Finally, she was dignified by Jian mo. After dinner, Jian Mo went back to the moistening garden, hid in the basket, looked at the design perspective, stared at the publication time of the magazine, as if she were going to stare at a hole The draft will be finalized next Monday. After it is finalized, the emperor will inevitably put a large number of advertisements for the interior renderings of the club... At that time, even if the magazine has no name, it will be picked out! "How could this happen?" Jane Mo turned to the design page and couldn''t figure it out. How can she say that the design of the emperor''s club is also her own feeling of falling into hell... Is it so coincidental that she is the same as others? Even with the same idea, how can we design a design similar to seven or eight Chengdu? Jane Mo threw the magazine aside, curled up, and buried her face between her arms and knees like a kitten What should Gu Beichen do if she is accused of plagiarizing the design she got by Gu Beichen? At that time, the emperor can be said to have weak supervision... But how will she face Gu Beichen? Thinking of this, Jane Mo''s heart was sad "Er..." Jane Mo clenched her teeth and uttered a small animal like whine. She suddenly got up and paced back and forth in the house because of anxiety. Time goes by little, because there are things hidden in my heart, I always feel slow and uncomfortable. Gu Beichen took his pocket with one hand and stood in front of the French window of the hotel with a goblet in his other hand. Looking at the fishing fire on the sea, the eagle''s eyes gradually became deep. Take back your eyes, hang your eyes, gently shake the goblet, and the ink pupil quietly looks at the scarlet liquor falling slowly from the cup wall Gu Beichen raised his glass and put it on the edge of his thin lips. He sipped. The mellow red wine spread through the taste buds. The mobile phone vibrated ''buzzing'' on the tea table. Gu Beichen turned and walked over... Put down his glass, picked up the mobile phone, looked at the incoming call, and then picked it up and put it in his ear. "Dad!" Gu Beichen shouted. Gu Moyuan answered, and then asked, "just from Africa to Holland with your mother..." after a pause, he asked, "I heard that Mo Huai is going back to Los Angeles?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and said, "I''ll deal with the company''s affairs. Just take your mother around the world..." Gu Moyuan looked a little frozen. "Beichen, you and your second uncle have been fighting for so long, can''t you reconcile?" Gu Beichen sneered, "how to reconcile?" He narrowed his eyes slightly, and his eyes were full of hate, but Gu Moyuan didn''t know and couldn''t let him know. Gu Moyuan sighed deeply. His son knew that although he advised, he knew he couldn''t persuade. "Dad is useless..." Gu Moyuan said mockingly. Gu Beichen frowned, neither responding nor refuting... Everyone has his own life, and dad''s life is not in the mall. "Mom..." Gu Beichen pursed his thin lips, revealing a trace of dignity, "... Are you okay?" "Yes." Gu Moyuan said, "it''s much calmer." "That''s good..." At the right moment, the door bell rang. Gu Beichen looked at the door and said faintly, "I have something to deal with here. You and mom can do their own things at ease." "Hmm..." Gu Moyuan sighed quietly, "pay attention to rest and eat. Your body is your own!" "Yes." Gu Beichen faintly answered and hung up the phone, then opened the door. ¡°Surprise£¡¡± "Xiao Chuer?" Gu Beichen looked at him standing at the door, with a smile on his lips, stared at his Shen Chu and frowned, "Why are you here?" When Shen Chu heard this, he smiled, "are you unhappy?" Gu Beichen sighed, and then looked at Mo Shaochen standing by the door. The man had turned and walked back. Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen''s proud back, pursed his lips, looked at Mo Shaochen on one side, and then walked in. "I came to the East China Sea to see a friend... I happened to consult Shaochen about some legal matters, and I knew you were all here." Gu Beichen still didn''t speak, but took out a goblet and poured red wine, "HMM." At this moment, Shen Chu was not sure about Gu Beichen''s mind. He laughed at himself with some embarrassment and uneasiness, "well... You have something to talk about, I''ll go first." Then she turned around. However, at the moment of turning around, there was a deep sadness on her face "Little chu''er!" Gu Beichen suddenly opened his mouth. Seeing that Shen Chu turned and looked at him, he said with deep eyes, "Shaochen and I came here this time because of JK..." Shen Chu frowned and looked at Gu Beichen puzzled. "Your appearance will make me misunderstand... You don''t understand?" Gu Beichen''s eyes became sharper and sharper. Shen Chu fanned his eyes, "what do you mean?" Her face suddenly coagulated and angry, "is it because I am the daughter of JK chairman, so I will obstruct you?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but he picked a indifferent arc at the end of his eyebrow. Shen Chu smiled, mocking himself and sneering, "Gu Beichen, anyone can doubt me... Only you, not you!" Her lips began to tremble. "If I would stop you today, I wouldn''t have left you five years ago..." Shen Chu screamed in disappointment, then turned around and strode away. With a bang, the door was closed with anger. "Why do you stimulate her so much?" Mo Shaochen leaned lazily on the back of the sofa, copying his pockets with both hands, showing indifference under the evil charm. Gu Beichen didn''t explain. He just walked over and handed a glass of wine to Mo Shaochen. "Did she just explain to me what happened five years ago?" "Yes." Mo Shaochen took over and calmly responded. "But I didn''t ask, nor did I go after her..." "Yes." Mo Shaochen responded again. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "it''s a little fake... I really don''t have the talent to act!" Mo Shaochen raised his eyes and looked contemptuously at Gu Beichen. "Beichen, are you sure you want to treat Xiaochu like this?" "I don''t want us to go to the point where we can''t turn back..." Gu Beichen said faintly. Even Junyan was so indifferent that people couldn''t see what he was thinking at the moment. There is a complex and fleeting sight. At the right time, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone broke the frozen atmosphere and made a vibrating sound unwilling to be lonely. He walked over, picked up his cell phone and looked at it. When he saw that the call was Jian Mo, he scratched his thin lips and smiled without even knowing it Gu Beichen picked up the phone and put it in his ear, but he didn''t speak. Jane Mo listened to the quiet atmosphere across the street and asked cautiously, "excuse me, are you galloping on a woman?" Chapter 166 Gu Beichen''s smile froze in an instant. Then, Jun''s face was full of haze... The original joy was frozen because of Jian Mo''s words. "Can you speak?" Gu Beichen spoke coldly. Mo Shaochen gently shook his glass and looked at Gu Beichen deeply. He had just returned the spring breeze, and now the frost brushed his face... He couldn''t help frowning slightly. He raised his hand and poured the cup into his mouth. He got up and put down the cup. After silently motioning with Gu Beichen, he left first Jane Mo grinned at the other end, "hey hey" smiled and asked softly, "husband... What are you doing?" "On women!" Gu Beichen said coldly. "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and said to herself: it''s the first time she''s seen such a stingy man! "What''s up, say it!" Gu Beichen asked whether he was extremely dissatisfied with women because of Jian Mo''s indifferent tone... Is he so amorous? Thinking of this, Gu Beichen''s face is even darker... He is such a clean man, which is rare in the world, okay? Jian Mo listened to Gu Beichen''s question and suddenly ''cluttered'' in her heart. When she reached her mouth, she hesitated in her mouth for a long time. Rather, she didn''t know what to say This hesitant Jian Mo Gu Beichen had never seen him. His handsome face was slightly cold, and his voice was unconsciously soft, "what''s the matter, huh?" "Just miss you..." Jane Mo''s habit for two years has become natural. She opened her mouth heartlessly and said what Gu Beichen likes to hear, "when will you come back?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly deep, "Monday!" He answered and asked, "say, what''s the matter?" Jane Mo bit her lower lip and looked tangled... She thought in her head, how can she say it to sound natural? However, she found that no matter how, Gu Beichen could finally detect the clue. Gu Beichen didn''t urge Jian Mo either, so he held up the phone and waited... This woman seemed to have a very heavy heart recently! The two sides were in such a stalemate for five minutes. Jian Mo just drooped his shoulders and gave up and said weakly: "it''s all right..." "Doo, Doo, Doo..." Jane Mo listened to the hang up sound from her mobile phone. She was stunned at first, then smiled at herself and hung her hand... Powerlessly put herself on the plush blanket. "If I say I want to change the design, will I admit in disguise that I copied it?" Jian Mo looked at the glittering crystal lamp and muttered, "but what if you can''t solve it in city a?" No one can answer Jane Mo, she just feels... It''s not as simple as it seems. It seems that there is a hand pulling a rope in the dark... A rope ready to strangle her at any time! Jian Mo was unhappy. The more she thought about it, the more unhappy she became... Finally, she simply got up, changed her clothes, drove to Yashu hospital. The ward at night was quiet and treacherous. There was nothing else but the sound of the heart rate meter that had been ringing all the time. After wiping Su Mo''s body, Jane Mo sat down by the bed. "Mom, I''ve got another problem..." she said and lowered her eyes. "I was tired of discussing with you in your arms before, but not now!" Said, Jane Mo''s nose was a little sour. "Mom... I''m not afraid of things," she lowered her eyes to hide the sadness at the bottom of her eyes. "But I''m afraid he despises me... Obviously many things can''t be changed, but even so, I don''t want him to misunderstand me!" No one can answer Jane Mo''s words. It is always the voice of the ''didi'' heart rate instrument that can answer her. Jane Mo didn''t speak. She just leaned down and gently dropped her face on Sumer. "Mom, if I have to bear the following problems in my life... Can I expect you to wake up?" The voice echoed softly and secluded in the ward. Jian Mo gently fanned his eyes, and the astringency of the corners of his mouth slowly spread across the whole face At the same time, the bell rang again and again in the big room, as if the other party couldn''t wait to pick it up. After calling Gu Beichen before, Jane Mo threw her mobile phone on the sofa and forgot to take it when she went out Gu Beichen''s eyes hung his hands gloomily... Because the phone was not answered, but turned off! The cold face line gradually stretched. Gu Beichen slightly raised his eyebrow, then left his mobile phone on the table and opened another bottle of wine When did Jane Mo start playing with him? When did it start? He couldn''t wait for her to call again or send text messages. He couldn''t help dialing back Gu Beichen despised his behavior. However, he felt that it was normal for him to do so. After all, if he was interested in Jane Mo, he would have to be interested. The sound of the access card opening the door came from outside. Gu Beichen looked sideways and saw Xiao Jing come in quickly "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing said and handed a document bag to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen took over and opened it. He took out the information inside and twisted his eyebrows. After reading it, he scratched a cold sneer on the edge of his thin lips. "Shen Hangzhi and Gu mohuai really have a good way to play..." he coldly raised his eyebrows. "How much has the loose shares been recovered?" Xiao Jing''s face was dignified, "three percent!" He looked at Gu Beichen and said, "Chen Shao, if this goes on, there may be unexpected accidents!" This matter does not need Xiao Jing''s reminder. Gu Beichen naturally knows Originally, what he was bound to get was the shares in the hands of his eldest sister, but now he is frozen in Zixiao! "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing said after forbearing, "we can take back five percent of Chu Shao''s hands first..." "Brush" for a while, Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing fiercely. Xiao Jing grinned secretly. He thought it was not easy to be a special helper now. It was hard to force, okay? "Divorce Miss Jane..." Xiao Jing''s eyes were so disorderly that he didn''t dare to face Gu Beichen. He just said, "not only can you get the shares in Chu Shao''s hands, but Miss Shen will be happy here. Kill two birds with one stone, how good?" "When did you laugh in the beginning of your life..." when did you laugh in the beginning of your life? " "..." Xiao Jing was stunned immediately, and then hurriedly said, "my heart for Chen Shao can be shown by the sun and moon, and heaven and earth can be used as a mirror... Like the water of the Yellow River..." At last, Xiao Jing''s voice became smaller and smaller. Then he grinned and closed his mouth. Gu Beichen took back his eyes and went to the French window. He looked at the sea connected with Mo Kong with his hands and opened his thin lips: "Xiao Jing, you have been with me for many years." Xiao Jing had a hard face and dared not speak. "What do you think I''m thinking now?" Gu Beichen asked, looking at Xiao Jing through the glass reflection. Xiao Jing lowered his eyes and sighed deeply Chen Shao has been ruthless and reckless since that incident. When did he think about the past and the future? But now... He thinks more, but because of one person! "Chen Shao, Miss Jane will understand..." Xiao Jingning said in a voice. Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing, and his thin lips gradually scratched. If there was a faint smile like nothing... That smile was fierce, with a trace of helplessness! Chapter 167 In your life, you think you will only love one person. That person has indelible traces in your life... But later, you know that it may not be your future! Jane Mo was awakened by the shift nurse who came to change her dressing. She fell asleep by the hospital bed last night I hurried back to the Runze garden in a car. After washing, I went to the company. When Jian Mo arrived, Tang Haoyang didn''t come. She waited until she went to work and looked for it again. There was still no one! "Find the director?" The secretary came out of the Secretary''s room with the information, saw Jian Mo looking at the door of Tang Haoyang''s office with a frozen face, asked and said, "the director was on a business trip last night, and it is estimated that he can''t come back until Monday morning!" Jane Mo immediately frowned when she heard this... Why is everything on Monday? The emperor handed in the final draft on Monday and Gu Beichen came back on Monday... The director can''t come back until Monday. Jane Mo looked a little dignified. She went back to the office area and took out her mobile phone to call Tang Haoyang... But as soon as she saw that the mobile phone was powered off automatically. I walked in a trance last night and didn''t get my cell phone... I didn''t remember until I got to the underground parking lot. Thinking that no one called in the evening, I didn''t go up to get it... I left in a hurry in the morning, grabbed my mobile phone and stuffed it into my bag without looking at it. Jane Mo took the charger and connected it. After starting the machine, she saw that there were more than a dozen missed connections. She opened it suspiciously... It was all "Mr. g"! It was last night. Jane Mo dialed back... But it rang. She suddenly remembered that she was in the office and hurriedly pressed it off again. Gu Beichen was having a meeting in Donghai branch. His mobile phone rang and just lit the screen. He saw the word "Jian Mo"... Unfortunately, he was hung up in an instant! The atmosphere in the conference room condensed in an instant. Everyone made eye contact, and the atmosphere didn''t dare to breathe. The reason why Gu Haoer didn''t send a text message to the magazine last night, but Gu Haoer didn''t answer it first. Unfortunately, no service status! Jian Mo dials again, still no service I feel that things have come and everything has become an obstacle... Jian Mo is more and more uneasy because she has been unable to get through to Tang Haoyang. Jian Mo is struggling whether to call Tang Yu and ask if there is a way to contact Tang Haoyang... At the right time, the mobile phone rings. She hurried to see... It was su Junli, not Tang Haoyang! Then Jane Mo said angrily, "hello?" Su Jun left his lips and smiled, "whose phone are you waiting for? So lost..." "Even if you''re not in front of me, you can see through other people''s Psychology... Do you know I''ll be depressed?" Jane Mo asked half jokingly. Su Junli just smiled softly, "remember to come to the airport later!" "Yes!" Jane Mo answered and felt warm about Su Jun''s carefulness. Until Jian Mo arrived at the airport, Tang Haoyang didn''t get through... Either he couldn''t get through or no one answered. Finally, Jian Mo sent a text message to Tang Haoyang, and then called Su Junli to ask where he was? "Mo Mo..." Su Jun saw Jian Mo from a distance and greeted him with a smile after shouting. "I''ll change my boarding pass first!" Jane Mo said and went to the self-service machine. Su Junli went with her and said, "city a is colder than Los Angeles. Do you bring more clothes?" "I''ll come as soon as I get off work," Jane Mo shook her head. "Just go and buy it..." Su Junli nodded with a smile. "Is there any place in city a that you want to play? I''m quite familiar there!" "Haven''t you been abroad?" Jane was a little surprised. Su Junli smiled. He was gentle and handsome. Such a smile was like a spring breeze. "I lived there for a while when I was a child..." he paused, his eyes fell deeply on the scar behind Jane Mo''s left ear and said, "I didn''t come back to Los Angeles until I was eight!" Jane Mo was a little surprised, but she didn''t think much. She just changed her boarding pass. Su Junli sighed secretly, knowing that Jian Mo probably had no impression of what happened at that time, so he reminded him that he didn''t see her respond. After changing the boarding pass, there was less than 20 minutes to board the plane. Jian Mo and Su Junli talked and laughed together and walked to the customs inspection gate... It seemed that they didn''t find a cold and sharp look, which had been moving with her. Gu Beichen stood outside the airport with his pocket in one hand and looked at the drifting Jian Mo through the huge glass. His cold, carved face was cold to the bone Drooping his eyes, Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to Jian Mo: where is it? Jane Mo was waiting in line to get through the customs. After receiving Gu Beichen''s text message, she suddenly remembered that more than a dozen missed calls and hurried to reply... However, she hadn''t started typing yet. She subconsciously looked around. You can''t say you''re at the airport, can you? Or leave with Su Jun Jane Mo thought, anyway, Gu Beichen won''t be back until Monday, and she will be back at most on Sunday night, so she replied: just got home from work! Gu Beichen looked at the text message, with a sneer on his thin lips. His eagle eyes were as cold as winter. Xiao Jing drove over. Gu Beichen got on the bus and said, "check where Jane Mofei is?" "Ah?" Xiao Jing didn''t react. Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was covered with haze, "can''t you understand what I''m saying?" Xiao Jing swallowed secretly. He felt that Chen Shaozhen''s son had been cloudy and sunny recently, just like that in March... He glanced at the airport. This was Chen Shao who hurried back to see Miss Jane... However, did Miss Jane fly away? Xiao Jing secretly thought about it with evil interest, and then sent the basic information of Jian Mo to the relevant personnel to check whether there was her on the flight during this time period Soon, the other party replied. Xiao Jing turned to Gu Beichen and said, "Miss Jane has gone to city a..." he paused, "and... Su Junli is with you!" Xiao Jing has a plan to abandon the car and leave. He feels that Chen Shao''s face has explained everything... Often, when Chen Shao hides his great anger, it is this sneer and gloomy expression at the moment. Jian Mo sat on the plane and looked at his mobile phone. Seeing that Gu Beichen didn''t reply to the text message again, he wondered if he was angry and whether to reply to the past again But on second thought, if he replied now and Gu Beichen called directly, wouldn''t listening to the voice be helping? The man could find her in Los Angeles in an hour without her prompting... She felt that he could know she was on the plane! Think about it, Jane Mo thinks it''s ok... Finally, she turns off the machine directly. The gear of the plane rubs against the ground and makes a roar. When Jian Mo''s plane slowly takes off, Gu Beichen has sat in the VIP lounge with his boarding pass to city a in his hand Chapter 168 In a bar near the sea in Donghai City, Mo Shaochen watched Shen Chu drink one cup after another... He didn''t stop, but he didn''t drink with him. "Shaochen, can''t everything go back..." Shen Chu laughed with self mockery, picked up another glass of wine, then looked up and poured it into his mouth, "he didn''t come after me last night, no! It wasn''t like this before..." Mo Shaochen looked at Shen Chu with deep eyes, "no one stays where he is!" Shen Chu reddened his eyes. "So he doesn''t love me anymore, does he?" Mo Shaochen didn''t answer because he couldn''t answer... He couldn''t understand Beichen and never understood it. "Why, why?" Shen Chu was sad and did not want to expose his cowardice and sadness. "Shaochen, does Beichen like others?" Her voice was unknowingly humble, "I shouldn''t have come back..." Mo Shaochen looked at Shen Chu with deep eyes. She was so beautiful that even if she was drunk, she still had a posture of drunk beauty. "Beichen has strong principles. You don''t know." He paused. "I said last night that you shouldn''t go to him, but you still have to go." After hearing this, Shen Chu looked at Mo Shaochen wrongfully, "does he really think I came back because of JK?" "Are you?" Mo Shaochen asked with fixed eyes. Shen Chu looked at Mo Shaochen for a long time, then smiled "ha ha"... She didn''t answer, but just picked up the glass and continued to drink. Mo Shaochen grabbed her glass with a frown and said coldly, "Shen Chu, if you still love Beichen, then chase him back... Where''s the strength at the beginning?" He sneered, "why, who are you showing me now? Me?" Shen Chumei looked at Mo Shaochen slightly drunk and was surprised by the coldness on his face. Mo Shaochen and Gu Beichen fell in love with Shen Chu at the same time, but Shen Chu fell in love with Gu Beichen... Things in the circle are well known, and Shen Chu naturally knows them. Even now, Mo Shaochen hasn''t put down Shen Chu However, compared with love, there is a person in his life who has no way to be hostile to him! Mo Shaochen took out his wallet, took out a few large bills and pressed them on the table. Then he pulled Shen Chu''s arm and walked out "Let go of me!" Shen Chu''s steps were somewhat vain, and what Mo Shaochen pulled was a staggering trot to keep up, "Mo Shaochen..." Mo Shaochen ignored Shen Chu and just pulled her out of the bar The sea breeze at night is slightly cool. Although Donghai city is warmer than Los Angeles, it is still very cool at night, especially by the sea. Shen Chu shivered and sobered up a little. He shook Mo Shaochen away and his face was completely angry. "I don''t need you to take care of who I show... Mo Shaochen, you have no right!" When the words fall, Shen Chu wants to turn back Mo Shaochen grabbed her and said coldly, "don''t wait to do something irreparable to win Beichen''s guilt... Shen Chu, what does Beichen want, you know?" Shen Chu was stunned by Mo Shaochen''s question, and a pair of clear eyes looked at him blankly. Mo Shaochen''s lips moved back and forth. When he reached his mouth, he finally didn''t say... If this thing is really related to her, how can the relationship between Beichen and Xiaochu continue? Beichen keeps such a distance from Xiaochu... Don''t you want her to be too embarrassed in the end or something? At night, the roar brought by the landing of the plane became a little dull. Because she came to a city with Su Jun, Jian Mo stayed with her in a five-star hotel close to Jinhua concert hall. Jian Mo now has Gu Beichen''s subsidiary card. It can be said that she is an invisible rich woman Unfortunately, afraid Gu Beichen knew from the attached card that she was not in Los Angeles and didn''t dare to brush... He was embarrassed, but he had to accept everything arranged by Su Junli. "Fix it up. I''ll come to you in half an hour... Go to dinner together?" Su Junli said after sending Jian Mo into the room, "I live next door!" Jane nodded without affectation. City a is colder than Los Angeles. It feels like winter... The trees outside are also bare and depressed. After finishing, Su Junli didn''t go out to eat because it was too cold outside. He took Jian Mo to the hotel directly. "I''ll go to the rehearsal in the Concert Hall tomorrow morning. Will you come with me?" When Su Junli sent Jian Mo to the door of the room, he asked. Jane Mo shook her head. "I''m not going... I want to walk around first." Su Junli saw that Jian Mo must have something to do in city a this time, so he didn''t ask much and nodded, "go to bed early!" "Well, good night!" "Good night!" Su Junli watched Jian Mo enter the room and then walked to his room Jane Mo didn''t sleep, but after taking a bath, she opened her notebook and checked the relevant information about design perspective magazine... Finally, she went to the forum in city a and didn''t find anything. Because "design perspective" is a new issue that has only been on the market for a few months, it is a little popular and has not attracted everyone''s attention... So that Jane Mo didn''t find anything. Some powerless closed the notebook. Jian Mo lay on the soft big bed and suddenly missed Gu Beichen If he knew about it, would he choose to believe her unconditionally, or would he think she was plagiarism and despise her? "He must despise..." Jane Mo glanced, and Gu Beichen didn''t like her design! Jian Mo sighed softly. Did they come out of UCL or fly out with Shen Chu "How sour!" Jane murmured, feeling that she was particularly sad to eat this vinegar. Pulling the quilt over her head, Jane Mo is going to sleep... Everything will be discussed tomorrow! With a "drop", Jane suddenly sat up and couldn''t wait to reach out to the bedside table to get enough of her mobile phone It was a text message. She opened it in a hurry... It was sent by Tang Haoyang. Tang Haoyang: the magazine was sent along with the newspaper and weekly of that day. Jane Mo frowned. If Xiangyu ordered it, it''s impossible for the director to have one... If it''s not ordered by the director, it means someone put it in it deliberately. Who is this man? The newspapers and magazines of the whole office building are distributed uniformly at the front desk of the office building. According to reason... Shouldn''t someone target her? Besides, no one has seen her design drawings except the design department and president Yu, as well as those who participated in the imperial comparison. The industry has its own rules. Those who can enter the imperial comparison draft are very rigorous. No one will disclose her design drawings Jane Mo felt that her brain capacity was really not enough. After thinking for a long time, she didn''t understand. She was almost stupid to cry! The sound of "Di" slipped again. Jian Mo thought it was Tang Haoyang''s, but when he opened it, it was Gu Beichen''s. Mr. G: did you sleep? Jane Mo didn''t think about Gu Beichen all day because she had the design in her heart, and didn''t think about the strangeness of her two messages before and after today. She just replied: she just took a bath and was ready to go to bed... If only her husband was there. Mr. G: Yes. Jane Mo looked at the proud "um" word and left the corner of her mouth. Before she replied, there was a knock on the door. "Dong Dong!" Gu Beichen''s slender fingers slightly bent and tapped on the dark brown door. There was a haze on his cold face and a sneer on the corners of his mouth. Chapter 169 Jane Mo listened to the knock on the door, opened the quilt, got up and looked at the door... Subconsciously, she opened it and asked, "Junli, what''s up...?" The last word, Jian Mo just said it habitually. When she saw a gloomy, cold and carved face, she suddenly widened her eyes Then Jane did another stupid thing! It was at the same time that Gu Beichen snorted coldly that she threw the door... In this way, she shut Gu Beichen out of the door! Gu Beichen''s face is as black as it needs to be at the moment. His eagle eyes are slightly narrowed. Suddenly, two startled sharp lights shoot out of his familiar eyes... It feels that he may kick the door of the hotel at any time. The door is opened again Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s dark face with a hard and cowardly face and clenched her teeth secretly. Anyway, she was going to die. What about him? It''s a pity that the reality is very cruel! "Yo, I''m hallucinating, too?" Gu Beichen''s voice came coldly. As soon as Jian Mo''s heart was sharp, she was trembled by Gu Beichen''s strange tone. "Husband..." Jane Mo flattered and circled Gu Beichen''s arm. "I was just thinking about you... I didn''t think we were so smart." With that, Jane Mo was afraid that Su Junli would suddenly come out. It was too embarrassing, so she quickly pulled Gu Beichen into the room. "Tut Tut, when did our family become so small..." Gu Beichen looked at the circle and said coldly. Jane Mo grinned secretly. She thought it was wrong to explain at this moment, and she simply didn''t explain. Anyway, I don''t want to help you with your smile Jane Mo pouted angrily, "ah Chen, how can you be in city a?" She tried to change the subject, "aren''t you in the East China Sea?" Gu Beichen smiled, but the smile was very fake. Jian Mo felt fluffy, "come and catch him!" "Catch it?" Jane didn''t understand, "eh, is it the woman of her husband who secretly slept with other men behind her husband?" She deliberately accentuated the word ''sleep''. "No!" Gu Beichen sneered, "well, it''s you!" "Me?" Jian Mo seemed to suddenly look at Gu Beichen with a disdainful face and shouted angrily, "husband, you''ll be disappointed... Look, there''s no more in the whole room except you, a man! Let alone sleeping with a man..." Hum, it''s not always that you dig yourself in a circle... Jian Mo is a little proud. Gu Beichen continued to sneer and looked at Jian Mo pretending to be a fool. Two words were written in the ink pupil - idiot! There are tens of thousands of grass and mud horses roaring past in Jian Mo''s heart. Those who grasp the heart and scratch the liver want to rush out and crush Gu Beichen... Unfortunately, she can only think about it. Gu Beichen went to one side and sat down on the sofa. He took out his cigarette and held it between his thin lips. The steel lighter ''Dang'' slipped past, and the cigarette was lit All his movements are gentle and elegant, and even the movement of spitting out smoke is extremely charming. Gu Beichen seldom smokes in front of Jian mo. if Jian Mo doesn''t feel nervous at the moment and doesn''t know why Gu Beichen appears here, he will be tired of praising Gu Beichen "Come on, why lie?" Gu Beichen opened his mouth faintly, picked his eyebrows and raised his eyes. The eagle''s eyes looked at Jian Mo indifferently, "don''t try to round up your panic with lies!" Jane Mo drooped her eyes and kept winding the band of her nightgown with her fingers... In that way, she was a parent and a trained child. "Why not..." for a long time, Jane Mo tilted her head slightly to one side and muttered. Gu Beichen''s thin lips scratched a cold sneer, and his voice slowly said, "do you want me to say it for you?" Jian Mo subconsciously looked at Gu Beichen and listened to him say: "last night, I made a phone call and asked when I would return to Los Angeles... After finding that there was no time conflict, I accompanied Su Jun to attend the charity concert at the weekend!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "if you don''t become a screenwriter... It''s a great loss for the screenwriter industry!" Gu Beichen sneered and twisted out the cigarette butts in the ashtray... All the actions were too calm. When Jian Mo saw that Gu Beichen stopped talking, she was more and more confused... Because of her tragic discovery, she wanted to cover up her purpose. In Gu Beichen''s eyes, she admitted what he said in disguise. Or... Why did she say she was at home, but she was thousands of miles away in city a? Or... Why did she come with Su Junli and even stay in the same hotel and live next door? Even she should believe Gu Beichen''s speculation The atmosphere stiffened for a moment. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, and Jian Mo stood there. She can''t say that her design is "plagiarism", so come to find the designer who designed earlier than her? Jane Mo thought of this and felt very blocked. It was clearly her own idea. It took her several nights to complete the design drawing... Finally it became "copied"! In the space, because two people are stiff, the breath is more and more dignified. No matter Gu Beichen or Jian Mo, they are like angry children at the moment. No one spoke first After a standoff for more than ten minutes, Jian Mo pursed his lower lip, slightly raised his long eyelashes and said, "I''m just leaving Su Jun, not to see his concert..." "For what?" Gu Beichen asked coldly. "I have my private space..." Jane Mo looked down again and made up her mind not to say when she didn''t understand. Compared with being misunderstood by Gu Beichen at this moment, she can''t stand that Gu Beichen thinks she plagiarizes and despises her! Jian Mo''s attitude completely angered Gu Beichen, who forbeared. He sneered, and the man got up and approached her Gu Beichen had a cold look in his eyes. He hurried back to Los Angeles for fear that Jane Mo might encounter something again and be sad alone. However, he watched her leave Los Angeles talking and laughing with other men... At this moment, what is he chasing after? Until he got off the plane and even stood in Jianmo''s room, he felt that his behavior was ridiculous. However, the woman completely ignored his anger and even talked about private space with him now? "We have the most intimate relationship," Gu Beichen asked with thin lips and deep eagle eyes. "Do you talk about private space with me?" Jian Mo subconsciously retreated to Gu Beichen''s cold eyes until he couldn''t retreat, and suddenly fell down on the bed Originally, her hands were wrapped around the robe belt. Because of inertia, she pulled at the moment of sitting down... The bag of the robe fell off! Gu Beichen picked a cool radian from the corner of his eye, "Jian Mo, not every time you go to bed can solve the problem!" "I''m not... Uh..." Jian Mo''s words didn''t finish. Gu Beichen''s lips had been blocked up... There was no tenderness, but only madness and sharpness under rage. Going to bed may not solve the problem, but it can slowly eliminate Gu Beichen''s anger This is the second time since Gu Beichen''s marriage that the madness regardless of Jian Mo''s wishes swept through her body and mind... All night! Chapter 170 Jian Mo silently bears Gu Beichen''s crazy demands, and the attacks make her painful and happy The feeling of instant hell and instant heaven. When Jian Mo felt it for the last time, she only felt the moment when she was scattered and fainted! Night, because two people hide their thoughts and become no temperature. Because of the location of city a, it takes more than half an hour at dawn than in Los Angeles at night In addition, Jian Mo was tossed by Gu Beichen all night. Finally, she fainted because she couldn''t bear the pain and happy excitement. So when the biological clock rang, she didn''t wake up at all. Gu Beichen stayed up almost all night, hugging Jian morjiao''s soft body, and his eyebrows were tightly locked. Yesterday''s plan was to go to Los Angeles to accompany Jane Mo for one night, and then fly back to Donghai the next day... But there was an accident, so he had to go back from city a today. Look at the time. It''s already eight o''clock in the morning. Jane Mo doesn''t mean to wake up at all. Gu Beichen gently pulled back his arm and got up to cover Jane Mo with a quilt... When he saw the "fruits of war" everywhere on her, there was a touch of guilt in the depths of the ink pupil, which was fleeting. After taking a bath and getting dressed, Gu Beichen took his mobile phone and put it in his pocket. At the same time, there was a gentle knock on the door Gu Beichen''s first reaction was that the visitor was su Junli! It seems... It''s necessary to warn the three young members of the Su family that Jane Mo is a man with a husband! Open the door, Gu Beichen just wanted to talk, but when he saw the man at the door, he was slightly stunned When the hotel service saw a man, he was surprised, but he immediately hung a professional smile, "Hello, this is what Mr. Su asked to send to Miss Jane." Gu Beichen looked down and printed Chanel''s logo on his handbag. The eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly, and Gu Beichen said calmly, "I don''t need it... It''s for you." The hotel service was a little surprised, "ah?" "Don''t you understand?" Gu Beichen said coldly, "if you don''t like it, just throw it away!" Then he went back to his room and closed the door. The hotel service was stiff at the door for a long time and didn''t respond. She didn''t come back until her arm holding up the bag was stiff... Then she held up the bag and turned away. But after a few steps, she looked back This is the latest Chanel fur... Don''t say no, the rich really can''t understand it! When Jane Mo woke up, it was almost ten o''clock. Her whole body seemed to be crushed, and her sore movement tightened her eyebrows. Slightly turned over, one side was empty... Jane Mo looked at the concave pillow and felt a little lost. If it wasn''t for her physical reaction, she thought everything was a dream last night! Jian Mo sighed, gently fanned his eyelashes and prepared to take his mobile phone to see the time... However, the talent moved, just right on Gu Beichen''s deep eyes. An elf, Jane Mo suddenly sat up, "Why are you here?" She instinctively asked, but after asking, she regretted and wanted to bite her tongue. Sure enough, as Gu Beichen said... She can''t speak! Cry blind! Jian Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and smiled awkwardly. Under Gu Beichen''s cold eyes, she flattered and said, "I thought you were gone, so..." "Hum!" Gu Beichen snorted coldly. If he didn''t see that she had just woke up, he was dejected at his position. See if he didn''t clean her up! "Get up!" Gu Beichen said coldly. Jane Mo decided to be obedient, and she didn''t wear anything. She just dragged her sore body to the bathroom... Just because she was so crazy last night, she walked strangely at the moment. Gu Beichen looked at her and frowned at her. His thin lips closed tightly into a line. Without saying anything, he came forward and held Jian Mo up "Ah!" Jane Mo screamed, and her small hand quickly grabbed Gu Beichen''s clothes. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. She had a reflected dependence in the fundus of her eyes... Such a small emotion pleased him a little. Take Jane Mo into the bathroom, put water on her and prepare to wash her... I didn''t think too much, but I just felt that he was a little too violent no matter what happened last night. But where dare Jane Mo ask Gu Beichen to wash her? Looking back three or two times, he went to the brain again. What should he do? Her body really can''t stand the toss of the storm like he did last night "I''ll just wash it myself." Jane Mo pursed her lips and felt wronged. Gu Beichen looked at the exquisite and chic figure under the water and felt that there was a heat flow running wildly in his body. If it was normal, he would have gone straight to the battle... But he knew how violent he was last night, and he knew that Jian Mo was holding back the pain and didn''t make a sound. "Hurry up..." Gu Beichen put down two words with indifference and turned out of the bathroom. Jane Mo glanced, "proud ghost!" After soaking in hot water for a while, Jane felt more comfortable. She didn''t dare to soak all the time. While wiping her body, she thought about why Gu Beichen was in city a last night, even more than three hours behind her! "Get dressed!" Gu Beichen still spoke indifferently when Jian Mo came out wrapped in a bath towel. Jian Mo was in a bad mood because of "plagiarism". Gu Beichen''s sudden appearance disrupted her plan and made her more blocked... But it can''t be said that she had to dress obediently and leave the hotel with Gu Beichen. Jian Mo sighed secretly. Fortunately, Su Junli is busy today... What if two men fight for her? Beauty is a disaster... Although she has the capital to pull, she also feels strange and embarrassed! Jane Mo amused herself, and then the corners of her mouth raised uncontrollably Gu Beichen drove the car, glanced at Jian Mo lightly and said with a sneer, "when am I leaving?" He raised his eyebrows. "You''d better not meet Su Jun Li?" "..." Jane Mo closed her smile and looked at Gu Beichen. She said, "whatever you think..." she didn''t intend to explain. She turned her head and looked out of the window, "anyway, how to say and how to make mistakes!" Some angry words made Gu Beichen slightly deep in the ink pupil. "Jian Mo," he suddenly shouted, then paused and asked, "do you really want a divorce?" Jian Mo was stunned and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen just looked at her, "if so, I can consider ending our relationship in advance..." Jane Mo''s heart sank, but her face was heartless and heartless. "Tut Tut, if Chen Shao wants to divorce me, just say it. How can I think? I''m divorced from you, but there''s no big money owner!" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. Then he turned the steering wheel at the intersection and stopped at Huaxi department store. Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen puzzled, then looked at the security guard standing at the door, and finally fell on a huge notice board The main content is... The mall will be closed before one o''clock! "Get off!" Gu Beichen ordered. Jane Mo became more and more confused. She looked at Gu Beichen and didn''t move... Although this is city a, Gu Beichen is a celebrity. They were caught together by the media and didn''t return to Los Angeles! "What are we... Doing?" Jane Mo asked. Gu Beichen untied his seat belt, looked at her indifferently and said, "charter the venue... Buy clothes!" Chapter 171 Jane Mo suddenly stared at Gu Beichen... What kind of local tyrant did he have this morning? Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo in surprise and said with a cold hum, "I''m Gu Beichen''s woman. I don''t need another man to buy her clothes..." then, he withdrew his eyes coldly and got off the car first. Jane was stunned for several seconds before she realized what Gu Beichen meant Su Junli must have been afraid that the weather in city a was too cold. She didn''t wear warm enough, so she sent her clothes over, and then just matched Gu Beichen! Jane Mo thinks she''s a fool... It''s estimated that people have been fighting for several rounds when she was asleep in the morning. She''s still thinking, didn''t they meet? In addition to the staff, there are only two customers in such a large shopping mall, Gu Beichen and Jian mo Gu Beichen still has a conscience. He took her to dinner before he let her choose to buy clothes. Jane Mo thought, if Gu Beichen said with pride and dryness at the moment: where does my woman need other men to send clothes? Jane Mo, this mall is for you. Wear it casually Hahaha... It''s so refreshing! Jane Mo thought so, because it was too strange to choose clothes under Gu Beichen''s sight. A lot of clothes have been sent out regularly before the season, and Susan has not sent them off regularly before Thinking of Gu Beichen''s "shopping" with her in person, she was really flattered and got something on her back... Then Jian Mo casually entered a shop and took a small fur with light lake blue to get ready to leave. Gu Beichen looked at the little fur on Jian Mo''s body and raised a smile on his thin lips, "Su Junli really knows you..." "Ah?" Jane Mo''s head crashed. I don''t know what he meant for no reason. Gu Beichen snorted coldly. Without saying anything more, he turned and left Jane Mo hurried up, "ah Chen?" "The plane I''m waiting for goes back to the East China Sea," Gu Beichen said indifferently. "The car is for you... When it''s used up, it''s sent to the emperor branch." Jane Mo stopped and looked at Gu Beichen''s indifferent back. She didn''t know why. She was a little sad in her heart. Along the way, Gu Beichen drove to the airport. Jian Mo sat aside. Neither of them spoke. After arriving at the airport, Gu Beichen didn''t get off, but his ink pupil fell slightly in front and asked, "for the last time... What are you doing in city a?" Jane Mo pursed her lips, bit her teeth and didn''t speak. She didn''t want to lie to him, but she couldn''t say Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and sneered on one side of his thin lip. Then he loosened his safety belt, got out of the car and walked straight to the airport hall Jian Mo didn''t see Gu Beichen until she cried and smiled. She took back her sight, got off the bus, went to the driver''s seat and drove away. Gu Beichen sat in the first class cabin and looked at the outline of the airport through the small window. The eagle''s eyes gradually became deep and bottomless In order to be afraid that she was sad, he went back to Los Angeles and then caught up with city a! It was originally a morning flight, but because Su Jun gave him a dress, he changed it to an afternoon flight... Just gambling. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes are slightly narrowed. He feels a little blocked that Jian Mo''s clothes are the same brand and style as Su Junli gave her... Su Junli knows Jian Mo''s preferences better than him, which makes him a little depressed who has been her husband for two years! With a roar and Gu Beichen''s gloomy mood, the plane slid into the blue sky, leaving a touch of white smoke, which gradually dispersed in the middle of the clouds At the same time, Shen Chu came out of the VIP channel wearing sunglasses that almost covered half his face, and then went straight to the airport parking lot to pick up the car. While the car slid into the road, she pressed the car phone, "things have changed, let the wind out in advance..." "But the emperor''s final draft hasn''t come out. I''m afraid it won''t reach the result you really want now?" A woman''s hesitant voice came over the phone. Shen Chu slightly sank his eyes and pondered for a while before saying, "wait!" Then she hung up the phone. Son Beichen said something last night, and his thing was to chase Jane Mo to city a? Coincidence or something? Shen Chu thought about things and stepped on the accelerator. "Jian Mo, even if I can''t get Beichen... I won''t let you pick up incidentally love!" With a sneer, there was a cold breath under Shen Chumei''s eyes. The sun in city a is particularly good today. After Jian Mo came out of the airport, he went directly to Emperor''s branch, put down his car, and then took a taxi to design perspective magazine. Looking at the seemingly old courtyard, Jane Mo looked at the sign hanging at the door in doubt. After making sure there was no mistake, she walked in through the small door "Oh, you... Say you... What do you do?" Jane Mo just walked to the middle of the yard, and there was a cry behind her. She turned and looked back. It was an old man in his fifties. "Hello, I want to ask, is this magazine still open?" When the old man heard that he was looking for a magazine, he came forward and said, "it went bankrupt... When the last issue of the magazine came out and there was no order, it went bankrupt..." Jane Mo frowned at the moment, "closed down?" She didn''t expect such a result. "Yes." The old man said impatiently, "all right, all right, go out... I''ll rent it to others later." Jian Mo looked back at the two-story house and asked with a dignified face, "Sir, do you have the contact number of the person in charge of the magazine? I have something to do with the magazine..." The old man looked at Jian Mo and thought that the little girl was good-looking, clean and not a bad person... He turned to the concierge and gave her a piece of paper with a contact number printed on it, "Nuo, it''s all on it. Contact yourself." "Thank you!" Jane Mo thanked the old man gratefully, and then called the editor in chief of a magazine called Li Menghai after she left the door. The other party soon picked it up. After saying hello, Jane Mo said, "I have a crush on a design published in your magazine. Can you give me the contact information of the designer and let me contact the other party?" Li Menghai was particularly strange and wondered if the magazine had that design? However, because it was the last issue of the magazine, he was impressed by the names of the people who contributed to it. After listening to Jane Mo''s name, he knew that there was indeed a contribution. "Wait a minute, I''ll find you the contact information of this person later." "Thank you!" Jane Mo''s eyes lit up as soon as she heard it. If you contact the designer, you will know the situation of the design... No matter what the idea is or what it is, it is important to clarify the source of the matter first. Li Menghai called back within half an hour and told Jian Mo that he would meet at Starbucks on the side of Huaxi department store after an hour. Jane Mo couldn''t help laughing. She really had a relationship with Huaxi department store today After taking a taxi, Jane Mo went to Starbucks. With the general characteristics given by Li Menghai, she found the designer in the position near the window. "Hello! I''m Jane Mo!" "Hello..." the woman got up with a smile and shook hands with Jane Mo, "I''m ADA!" Jane Mo took out the "design perspective" from her bag and opened the page, "excuse me, is this your work?" Chapter 172 ADA looked down, smiled and nodded, then asked suspiciously, "didn''t you say that only a few samples of this magazine have gone out? How did you have this magazine?" Jane Mo had a heavy heart. She just said a reason and asked, "can I ask you the idea when you designed this?" "Of course!" ADA was obviously happy, "someone appreciates my design, and I''d like to share..." Jane Mo smiled at the corners of her mouth, then ordered coffee and listened to ADA talk about her original idea of designing this... Unexpectedly, when ADA designed this, she also reached the trough of her life, which coincided with her in many aspects. Jane Mo''s heart became heavier and heavier. Finally, she pursed her lips and said, "listen to you, you must care about this design!" "Of course..." ADA said with a smile. "Although I''m not a designer, no designer doesn''t care about his own design." Jane Mo agrees with this sentence. Because she agrees, she thinks things are getting more and more difficult Can''t ADA sell her the design? Even if there is no copyright dispute in the future, she can''t mix up in the circle. After a few more words, Jane Mo got up with the magazine, said goodbye to ADA with a smile, and then turned sadly to leave Starbucks. Looking at the figure of Jane Mo leaving, ADA gradually put away the smile on her face... At the right time, she looked out. A man with a professional SLR camera in his hand made an "OK" gesture with her. While Jane foamed out of Starbucks, he turned and disappeared into the crowd. City a is also a very prosperous city. Because Huaxi department store was temporarily closed for several hours in the morning, the flow of people is even greater now. As a department store chain under the emperor, Huaxi has always led the high-end fashion... And has become a region pursued by people. Standing in the crowd, Jane Mo only felt sad and ridiculous Obviously, she didn''t plagiarize. Now after seeing ADA, she thinks she plagiarized... This idea is terrible. If you can''t believe it, how can others believe it? The voice of a text message came, but Jane Mo didn''t hear it. After a while, the phone rang Jane Mo took out her mobile phone from her bag and saw that it was Gu Beichen''s. at this moment, her nose suddenly became sour. Then he shouted recklessly, "husband..." Gu Beichen listened to the noisy environment. Jane morna murmured and frowned slightly with a nasal voice, "what''s the matter, huh?" He originally wanted to remind Jane Mo that she must return to Los Angeles tonight, but now he unconsciously slowed down his voice. The low and magnetic voice echoed in her ears like a cello. Jane Mo''s eyes were slightly red. "If..." she bit her lower lip, "I mean, if... I have to change the design of the emperor''s club, what should I do?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and his cold, carved face coagulated, "give me a reason!" "Can you not ask the reason?" Jane Mo''s voice was a little weak, with a little coquettish breath. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deep and didn''t speak. Jian Mo walked in the crowd, but said softly, "can you let me be willful for once... Just this time!" Gu Beichen wants to refuse, because it is against the rules, and even... It may affect the progress. As the top decision-maker of the group, he is often calmer than anyone. "Can you do it in one day?" However, when Gu Beichen''s thin lips opened gently, he said so. Jane Mo''s eyes suddenly lit up, "yes!" Gu Beichen heard the excitement in Jian Mo''s tone, as if there was no just boredom. One side of the corner of his mouth couldn''t help but subconsciously raise it. That kind of smile spread in the fundus of his eyes in an instant. "Well, I''ll see what ghosts you can draw in one day!" Gu Beichen said, "I''ll ask Xiao Jing to book a ticket for you and go back to Los Angeles tonight." Gu Beichen didn''t say at this moment, and Jian Mo was already like an arrow in his heart. Hearing that he was so considerate, he kissed his mobile phone happily, "my husband is great!" "..." Gu Beichen''s smile deepened, "flattery..." he hissed and scolded, and then hung up the phone. Just, at the moment of hanging up the phone, Gu Beichen couldn''t help laughing If such a smile falls into the eyes of the Imperial Staff, they will think that their president has taken the wrong medicine! Gu Beichen called Xiao Jing over and explained two things Book Jane Mo a ticket back to Los Angeles from city a at the moment. Second, inform Shang Junhao that the design of the 18th floor of the emperor club may have to be changed... Finally, if it can''t be done, it is emphasized that he agreed. Xiao Jing listened, but finally his chin was about to fall off, "ah? Change the design? Who changed it? Or change the cooperative company?" Several questions came out in succession. It is conceivable how surprised Xiao Jing was. Such a situation has never happened before... Besides, there is only one day left for the final draft. Who is so awesome? However, without waiting for Gu Beichen to answer, Xiao Jing has found how stupid his question is... The design of the 18th floor is handled by Jian mo. if it needs to be changed, it will not be put forward by Chen Shao! But... Chen Shao even agreed with Jian Mo to modify the design draft at this section? Regardless of the reason, Chen Shao agreed. He felt that today''s sun must set from the East... Originally, the principle is indeed different from person to person! Jane Mo soon received the ticket information. She looked at the time. It was two hours later Jian Mo first took a taxi to Jinhua concert hall, found Su Jun and told her to leave in advance and couldn''t watch the concert in the evening. Su Junli had some regrets, but he saw from the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes that it was not as gloomy as yesterday, "there is still a chance..." he said, his eyes fell on the little fur on Jian Mo, smiled and said, "this color is very suitable for you!" Jane Mo looked down at her clothes and nodded without much thought Xu is because Gu Beichen agrees to change her design. Jian Mo is in a good mood and asks playfully, "is it good?" "Yes." Su Jun''s smile spread from the corner of his mouth, and his sight became deep when he looked at Jian mo. there was a feeling that he could not suppress gradually. "I''ll go first and invite you to dinner when I get back." Jane Mo looked at the time and didn''t dare to delay. Su Jun answered, "I''m waiting for your call... Don''t forget!" "Certainly not!" Jian Mo said with a smile, waved his hand with Su Jun and left in a hurry. Su Junli looked at Jian Mo''s back and gradually put away his smile... With a helpless sigh, he murmured, "I also want to take you to the famous night market here in the evening. You will love it there!" "With whom?" A charming voice came from one side. Su Junli glanced at wing and shrugged, "it''s not you anyway..." Chapter 173 In the executive meeting room of JK group headquarters, Shen Chu sat at the end, listening to the executives and Shen Hangzhi studying the acquisition there without saying a word. It was quiet like an invisible person. Until the end of the meeting, she didn''t say a word, so that the people at the meeting almost forgot her "For the next thing, I hope you can come up with countermeasures as soon as possible." Shen Hangzhi''s face, which has been precipitated for years, still shows the bitterness of his youth. "If JK is really wholly acquired by the emperor, I believe you know your next fate very well... Adjourn the meeting!" Everyone solemnly took the folder in front of them and left the conference room. Shen Chu was the last one to leave. When he moved, his mobile phone rang. She answered, "I''ll let you up!" After that, Shen Chu hung up and went upstairs to Shen Hangzhi''s office. "Dad!" Shen Chu shouted a little indifferently, and then sat down on the side of the sofa under the sign of Shen Hangzhi. "Listen to your mother these two days. You seldom call her?" Shen Chu''s face was calm. "I''m busy." "You have to call her when you''re busy, so she won''t worry..." Shen hang said while picking tea. Shen Chu answered gently, but a touch of ridicule slipped in his drooping eyes. "How''s it going with you?" Shen Hangzhi asked. Shen Chu calmly replied, "I''m looking for a breakthrough..." after that, she raised her eyes, "Dad, is it over this time, and you really won''t go back?" Shen Hang''s eyes suddenly and coldly shot at Shen Chu, "why, don''t you believe it?" Shen Chu was silent, neither responding nor opposing. After all, she has seen through a lot of things from childhood to adulthood... What is she in dad''s eyes? In his eyes, there was only one ah Dou named Shen Tianyue who couldn''t get up! Shen Hangzhi astringed his eyes, burned water and made tea, "I emphasize again... After this time, the things promised to you will not change!" Shen Chu listened and said indifferently, "I see." Then she stood up, "I won''t come to the company recently... I feel Beichen has doubted me." Words fall, she deeply coagulated eyes Shen Hangzhi, and turned away with complex emotions. When Shen Hangzhi heard the sound of closing the door, he sneered. His eyes became deep and lay back on the sofa... Gu Beichen began to fight with Gu murhuai. Now people can''t understand it. Less than 30, deep thinking seems to have experienced a lifetime Donghai city. Gu Beichen returned to the hotel after finishing his work. As soon as he sat down, he received a text message from Jian Mo: dear husband, I''ve got off the plane and am on my way home, meimoda! Gu Beichen looked at the text message and subconsciously smiled at the corners of his mouth. That smile was filled in the air from the moment of his heart... For a moment, the whole presidential suite began to be filled with a sweet smell. Looking at the text message, the screen went dark and was lit up again. This was repeated several times... Gu Beichen suddenly realized that he had done such a childish thing as staring at the mobile phone text message like an adolescent boy? "Hum!" Gu Beichen coughed to cover up his behavior, but he suddenly remembered that he was alone in the house and was about to cry. Gu Beichen went to his desk, opened his notebook and prepared to deal with the documents. The mobile phone text message rang again Jane Mo: husband, I''ve been downstairs! Jane Mo: husband, I have entered the house Gu Beichen looked at the text message reported by Jian Mo and couldn''t help laughing... If he just felt that the text message was warm, he already knew that Jian Mo was flattering. The eagle''s eyes are deep. Gu Beichen looks at Jian Mo''s name, and Junyan gradually shrinks her smile... Does this woman stick to him only when she has something to find him? Gu Beichen sighed and texted Jian Mo back: Well, I won''t make a surprise inspection tonight. I don''t know if you''re not home. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s affectation message and glanced. "For the sake of breaking the principle for me, forgive you!" After thinking about it, my fingers slid quickly on the screen, and another text message was edited in the past. After Jane Mo sent a text message, she took a bath and changed her home clothes, so she planned to do the design all night Just on the plane, I don''t know if it''s because of a turnaround. Her inspiration burst out in a good mood. It is still the tone and main tone of black and red, but the whole design will become more bold and manic Jane Mo: at present, I only love my husband, so I won''t cheat in my marriage! Gu Beichen looked at the text message and knew that Jian Mo was trying to please him... However, his heart burst into flames because of the sentence "only love". The last name of the editor, Lian Mo''er, was changed from the last name of Jane to the last name of Leng Mo''er! Looking at the pile of documents waiting to be processed in the mailbox, Gu Beichen''s mind drifted to Jian mo... Why did she go to city a? And why suddenly change the design? She should know that if this design can''t cover the previous one, she may lose this opportunity Gu Beichen stared, then dialed Xiao Jing''s phone, "find out who Jian Mo contacted in city a today..." after a slight meal, he said again, "after 1:00 noon!" Xiao Jing answered with a sigh and thought: my Chen Shaoye... You have such a strong desire for possession. Is that really good? Night, two cities, one East China Sea and one Los Angeles Under the two lights, a drawing pen, a signing pen... One outlines persistence, and the other is firm. The vibration of the "buzzing" mobile phone broke the silence of the room. After Gu Beichen replied to a document, he picked up his mobile phone, looked at it and answered, "Shaochen?" "Do you have time?" Mo Shaochen said faintly, "come out and have a drink..." Gu Beichen glanced at the documents that had been processed, "half an hour." "Well, I''ll wait for you at the bar of the hotel." Mo Shaochen said that he had hung up the phone. Gu Beichen continued to process the documents. Half an hour later, the man appeared in the bar... The eagle''s eyes slid like a detector and finally landed on Mo Shaochen sitting in front of the bar. Gu Beichen walked over and was stopped by a woman wearing a tight bodice and a small coat. "Sir, alone?" As the woman spoke, she rubbed the looming fullness on Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen didn''t even look at the woman. He just opened his mouth calmly: "I''m only interested in my wife''s body..." he glanced at the woman''s Hun department. "Besides, I''m not interested in fake things." The woman''s face ''Shua'' changed, then scolded, turned and left. "I''m still so ruthless to women..." Mo Shaochen said jokingly. "I''m suddenly curious. If that woman was replaced by Xiaochu, would you say you''re only interested in your wife?" Chapter 174 Gu Beichen lightly raised his eyebrows. "You know, I won''t cheat in my marriage." Then he asked the bartender for a glass of wine. "Why do you suddenly think of drinking? It''s not like you..." Mo Shaochen smiled, "it''s not like you to Xiaochu!" Slightly paused, he raised his eyebrows and asked, "Beichen, when Xiaochu just came back, aren''t you like this?" "People always have something persistent about the past..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly deep. "For example, the model I liked very much when I was a child, I still think about it... But what I think about is the model, or the happiness it brought me at that time?" Then he looked at Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen is a smart man. As a well-known lawyer, he is calm and calm... What Gu Beichen''s words mean, he understood in an instant. "Because of your wife or JK?" Asked Mo Shaochen. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and the corners of his mouth slightly hooked an evil radian, without answering. Mo Shaochen didn''t ask again, and there was no need to ask again. He just raised his glass, motioned, looked up and drank, "Beichen, don''t hurt her anyway." Mo Shaochen dropped his words and motioned to the bar to pour another cup The soft and dull voice of the resident singer came from the bar. The little mood of sad spring and hurt autumn is preferred by the pub people. Gu Beichen''s thin lips lightly scratched a thin smile, which was full of emotions that people couldn''t understand. He said lightly, "how could it?" A light eh, people can''t understand what he really means... How can it hurt? Or how could it be... I''m afraid that only Gu Beichen himself knows! Mo Shaochen looked at Gu Beichen and drank up the wine handed over by the bartender again. Gu Beichen didn''t advise, but just touched the glass he poured again and poured all the wine in the glass into his mouth... At the moment, what he thought was not Shen Chu, but Jianmo. Jane Mo carefully sketched the sketch. She had to finish all the design sketches of the whole floor tonight. She also needed to produce 3D renderings during the day tomorrow. It can be said that... She almost didn''t even have time to sleep. But even so, she is still very energetic It''s not a coincidence that people don''t care about themselves. In the same night, some people are busy, some are crazy, and some are relaxed day after day... Naturally, some people sink into the black world and never return. The light of the computer reflected on Shen Chu''s face. She looked at a group of photos sent from above, took her mobile phone and dialed out, "didn''t she doubt anything?" "For such things, if people are guided to have the concept of entering the Lord first, they will feel a little weaker even if they know it is not the truth..." the woman''s voice came from the phone. "Besides, according to her idea and design, she will only feel more and more like she is hitting the idea." Shen Chu lies back on his seat with a smile and his eyes fall on the last photo Shen Chu pushed the magazine to ADA. In that way, coupled with such sensational words as "I want to buy your copyright", people often forget the original truth. Besides... The media must like the news about Jian Mo very much now. "As long as Monday is over, your goal will be achieved." The woman smiled and said, "but if you just want to punish her, you can release the news tomorrow..." Shen Chu didn''t speak. At noon, she knew that Beichen had gone to city a and was impulsive If these photos are released in advance, how can they be better after the emperor puts in the club advertisement? People just have to stand on the top and fall hard! "I''m flying to the United States tomorrow and won''t come back..." the woman paused. "But I''ll pay attention to the news in Los Angeles next week." Shen Chu cut off the phone. Meimou Qingmi... How can Beichen like a woman who is disgraced and even plagiarized? Beichen majored in architectural design, but in the end, few people knew that he was born in UCL... But because his design was copied and won the prize by people around him, he didn''t report it, but he never mentioned that he came out of UCL again. Shen Chu smiled coldly, then copied the photo from the mailbox to the USB flash drive, put it in his bag, and then turned to the bathroom. The morning sun broke through the thick clouds and quietly waved warmth. It fell on Jian Mo through the clean glass window, plating a thin halo around her. Jane Mo turned her already sour neck, then changed a drawing pen and continued to draw "Di" sounded softly. Instead of looking at the text message immediately, Jian Mo took the mobile phone after drawing that part. Mr. G: breakfast is the energy of the day. Jian Mo looked at this sentence and smiled sweetly at the corners of her mouth... She pursed her lips and couldn''t help thinking of Gu Beichen''s look of arrogance when he sent a text message. "Ding Dong!" Jian Mo is preparing to send a text message to thank the gold owner''s husband. The doorbell rings She grabbed her cell phone and got up to open the door first. Without much thought, she knew that the people she was here were close to Gu Beichen. Jane Mo opened the door and looked at the big boy in a restaurant dress. "Excuse me, are you..." "Here''s your order, miss. It''s thirteen yuan altogether!" The big boy took breakfast out of the incubator and handed it to him. Jane Mo was stunned. When did she order? At the right time, the message came again... Jian Mo subconsciously opened the message and looked at it. Mr. G: pay for breakfast! Looking at the content of the text message with a trace of pride, Jane Mo''s heart suddenly gushed out of the taste of honey, "wait, I''ll get the money..." she said. She had turned to get the money and gave it to the big boy, "thank you, don''t change it." The big boy looked at the twenty in his hand, thanked him and left. Jane Mo put breakfast on the tea table, a bowl of porridge and several small steamed buns. It''s a simple breakfast, but now she thinks it''s the most delicious thing in the world, even if... She hasn''t eaten a mouthful. Jane Mo went to wash, then took a picture of herself with her porridge and mobile phone... Then sent the picture to Gu Beichen with a sentence: Thank you for your husband''s breakfast! Gu Beichen was about to look at the bridge across the East China Sea and the South China Sea. When the talent stepped into the elevator, the mobile phone shook. When I opened it, I couldn''t help laughing because it was Jian Mo''s clean and watery face or an expression expressing that the porridge was delicious Xiao Jing looked suspiciously at Gu Beichen''s smiling face and looked at the mobile phone in his hand... Now you don''t have to guess. It must have been sent by Miss Jane. When the elevator arrived at the underground parking lot of the hotel, Xiao Jinggang''s mobile phone rang as soon as he sat in the driver''s seat. He listened to the people inside and finally said, "send me an email directly." After that, he hung up the phone. Within a minute, there was a voice prompting for a new email. Xiao Jing turned to Gu Beichen in the back seat and said, "Chen Shao, Miss Jane''s going to city a seems to have something to do with a magazine..." Gu Beichen raised his eyes and the eagle looked at Xiao Jing in doubt. Magazines thousands of miles away... Things he can''t know? Xiao Jing saw Gu Beichen''s doubts, and his eyebrows coagulated. He just said, "there seems to be the design of Miss Jane''s club in that magazine..." after a pause, he continued, "the problem is that the magazine was published a month ago!" The implication is that Jane may be involved in plagiarism Chapter 175 "It means..." Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing with his eagle eyes slightly deep, "... Plagiarized by Jian Mo?" When Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing, he suddenly "cluttered" and didn''t speak. "Impossible!" Gu Beichen immediately rejected, "Jian Mo''s design will not copy anyone..." he said calmly, there is no personal feelings in it, just trust, trust without any reason! That is the trust of a proud and confident designer! Jane Mo''s bold design shows the hope of arrogance. Both interior and architectural framework have her unique style... It''s no exaggeration to say that she is a piece of jade in the architectural design field. With a little carving, she will shine. "But..." Xiao Jing didn''t believe that Jian Mo would be a plagiarist. After two years together, Xiao Jing felt that although Jian Mo "loves money", she doesn''t love many women who have principles like her... How can such a principled person plagiarize? "What about the design of the magazine?" Gu Beichen asked. Xiao Jing opened the email and clicked the picture before handing his mobile phone to Gu Beichen Looking at the haze, Gu''s face gradually became thinner and colder He pondered for a while and handed his mobile phone back to Xiao Jing. Then he took his mobile phone and sent a text message to Long Xiao, and then said, "drive." "Yes!" Xiao Jing responded and started the car to the bridge across the two cities. Gu Beichen looked at the passing street scenery and thought of the stubborn forbearance of Er Jianmo the night before yesterday. He felt even more guilty for a while... But he also held a deeper anger. Is he so untrustworthy of her trust? Does she think that when he knows... He will definitely think that she copied it? Gu Beichen suddenly felt distressed. He couldn''t help frowning at the thought that she asked him if he could change the design yesterday afternoon. Where does the world have such a same idea? In this case, there are often only two possibilities... One is that Jian Mo plagiarizes, and the other is that the magazine has been tampered with. Jane Mo can''t copy. She is so proud of herself and won''t tolerate her doing so... Then there is only one possibility left! Gu Beichen''s eyes narrowed in an instant, and the ink pupil suddenly emitted two terrible lights... But he just turned around and recovered his calm. After a while, Gu Mochen took back his cell phone and sent it to Bei Mochen. Mr. G: most of the day is left. If I can see the amazing design, I''ll give you a gift! Jane Mo looked at the text message, and the corners of her mouth were inexplicably sweet No matter what her heart sink or not, cherish the moment, and even if she gets divorced, it''s worth remembering. Jane Mo: get your presents ready! Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s text message and put a proud expression behind it. He couldn''t help but raise his thin lips... That kind of smile spread across Junyan and reached the bottom of his eyes. Jian Mo, who he knew, was always serious about his work except that he was glib and heartless in the face of him. Open the breakfast picture of Jane MOFA before and look at her charming appearance. Gu Beichen thinks... Such a life is actually very good. There are occasional small surprises and problems in the plain... Then, the warmth seeping into the heart follows. Press out the phone and put it into his pocket. Gu Beichen looks out of the window again Jane Mo, I''m waiting for you to walk into the emperor''s field. I''ll wait for you there! Near noon, the sun becomes hot and shines obliquely on Jian Mo''s face. It is very comfortable and warm Looking at the already drawn sketch, Jane Mo smiled at the corners of her mouth If the previous design is full of rebellion under the dark system, then this design makes people have the urgency and excitement to break through the soul. Jane Mo is not sleepy at all, but her eyes are a little sour... She plans to have a rest first, and then make 3D renderings in the afternoon. Look at the time. It''s twelve o''clock in three minutes... Jane Mo suddenly looks at the door with some expectation. "Ding Dong!" Just one minute after twelve o''clock, the door bell rang, and Jane Mo''s eyes lit up. She hurried to open the door and looked at her mobile phone as she walked. Open the door, and sure enough, there is a takeout outside "Hello, the fast food you ordered," said the waiter. "It''s twenty-three yuan altogether." Jane Mo directly took out a fifty from her pocket and handed it to the waiter, "don''t change it, thank you!" She took the lunch box into the room and didn''t wait for Gu Beichen''s message... She left her mouth, opened the lunch box first, and looked at the dishes inside, suddenly stunned. As like as two peas, she looked at the food in the lunch box. This is the last time she sent a fast food to Gu Beichen. It was exactly the same! Jane Mo naturally doesn''t think it''s a coincidence. She happily took her mobile phone and took a picture of herself holding fast food and sent it to Gu Beichen Gu Beichen is discussing things with Mo Shaochen. The two people in the fast-food box don''t take a few bites. A text message came in, Gu Beichen paused, took his cell phone and opened it... The purpose was the picture sent by Jian Mo, whose eyes had been bent into crescent moon because of the smile... It was just that it was not difficult to see the red blood on the cloth because of staying up all night. Mo''er: Thank you for your lunch. My husband should also remember to eat! Gu Beichen smiled and received his mobile phone. Mo Shaochen looked at Gu Beichen and his eyes were deep... But he didn''t ask anything. He just said where the East China Sea city needs to start to disintegrate the foundation of JK. During the whole day, Jian Mo was busy and looking forward to it... When it was almost time for dinner in the afternoon, the 3D rendering was half finished. Give yourself some time to rest. Jane Mo gets up and does a simple stretch on the balcony... Waiting for dinner. Dinner was "as promised" at 6:30. This time it''s 33 yuan. Jane Mo is a little confused. It''s thirteen in the morning, twenty-three at noon and thirty-three at night... What''s the meaning? After sending the self photo of dinner to Gu Beichen, Jane Mo asks questions. Gu Beichen looked at more and more red blood in Jian Mo''s eyes and sighed with a heavy heart... His slender fingers quickly drifted on the screen, and the text message replied to the past. Mr. G: as you grow older, you will have more and more problems... And you will face more and more problems. If you can solve it and digest it all, the morning sun will always welcome you! Jane Mo looked at this message and her nose was sour in an instant "I won''t let you down..." Jian Mo murmured, looking at the voice of the text message. "I may not be the best designer, but I have my brilliance!" At last, Jane Mo smiled... Charming and confident! Chapter 176 The night is deep and heavy. The ink sky is dyed with a beautiful scenery by the dense stars, echoing with the traffic flow gathered by the lights. Jane Mo has fallen asleep on the table, and there are 3D renderings running back and forth on the computer... The more perfect combination of black and red permeates the most direct crazy bath look in people''s body! The sound of pressing the code lock echoed in the corridor, and the door was pushed open from the outside Jane Mo didn''t feel at all. Her even breathing showed her fatigue. Gu Beichen looked deeply at Jian Mo sleeping on the table. A touch of heartache slipped through the depths of eagle''s eyes, and then changed his shoes and walked forward with light steps. Jane Mo sleeps very heavily, with a shallow smile on her lips... She has faded her defenses in the past days. At the moment, she is pure like an angel left in the world. Gu Beichen glanced at the 3D rendering still running on the computer. After reading it as a whole... Eagle''s eyes were full of surprise and surprise. One day and one night, Jane Mo can be said to have completed the impossible. He didn''t come back until tomorrow morning, but he came back in the middle of the night... Just thinking that if she encountered a bottleneck, he might be able to help her out. But obviously... She doesn''t need it! Gently bend over, Gu Beichen carefully pulls Jian Mo''s body into his arms, and then gently beats her horizontally and holds her up "Well..." Jane Mo''s throat gave a restless cry, and her body wriggled at the right time. Gu Beichen stopped for fear of waking her up After stopping for a few seconds, Jane Mo didn''t move any more. She just slept in Gu Beichen''s chest again She was really tired. Her thoughts and nerves were tense all day and night. Just after the final effect drawing came out, she could no longer support herself and fell asleep on the table. Gu Beichen gently put Jian Mo on the bed and took off her clothes... Although she clearly knew that she would not wake up at the moment, she subconsciously slowed down and lightened all her movements. After cleaning up Jane Mo, Gu Beichen went to the bathroom to take a bath Because these two days of busy, plus back and forth in front of the flying people in the air, Gu Beichen is also a little tired. After getting into bed, he habitually stretched his arm under Jian Mo''s neck... At the right time, Jian Mo turned around consciously, found the most comfortable position in his arms and continued to follow. Took the remote control and turned off the light. Gu Beichen also turned his body sideways and closed his eyes face to face with Jane mo As long as the two places have a clear breathing space, but some of them feel that they will have a clear sleep in each other''s night, as long as they smell each other''s silence for two years. Jian mo... Go ahead with confidence, I''ll be right behind you! You open the way and I''ll cover In the morning, the sun playfully passed through the curtains and fell on the floor Jane Mo smashed her mouth and turned over Suddenly! Jane Mo suddenly opened her eyes. She looked at the arm she was resting on and fanned it twice. Then she suddenly looked back and just looked up at Gu Beichen''s deep eyes. "Why are you here?" Jane made two more mistakes. Gu Beichen''s face turned black again. "Jian Mo, do you suddenly see me and only ask this sentence?" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she grinned and said, "husband, I''m surprised... People''s reflex arc will be surprised. It''s an instinctive reaction." Then she half got up and kissed Gu Beichen on his face, "when did my husband come back?" "Last night!" Jane Mo was surprised, "Hey, I don''t know..." "Well," Gu Beichen replied, "some people sleep like dead pigs. Only when they know there are ghosts!" "..." Jian Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and lay down in anger with Gu Beichen''s description. Gu Beichen looked at her, deliberately raised his right arm and looked at the watch on his wrist, "Oh, it''s nine o''clock in twenty minutes..." Jane Mo was stunned at first, and then suddenly sat up. After a scream of "ah", she opened the quilt and ran to the bathroom at the speed of 100 meters Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a radian. Looking at the time just after eight o''clock, his smile deepened. Jian Mo was very depressed when she held the tube dressed in the design drawing. She was played by Gu Beichen early in the morning... I really can''t be happy to be friends! Just arrived at the company, Jane Mo received a call from Li Xiaoyue. "Girl, what''s going on now?" Li Xiaoyue asked. Jane Mo flattened the corner of her mouth. "It''s a little complicated. I haven''t figured it out yet... But the other side agreed to let me change it." Because she has arrived at the company, what she said is more obscure. Li Xiaoyue wondered, "Gu Beichen even agreed with you to replace the design drawing?" "Yes!" Jane Mo answered with a smile. I heard that Jian Mo was in a good mood. Li Xiaoyue estimated that the immediate problem was solved. "OK, meet back and say... I have two courts to open today. I''ll call you in the evening." There was a deep smile in her voice. Unfortunately, Jane Mo thought about the design and didn''t hear it. "Good!" Jane answered and hung up. After a weekend, everyone was a little listless at work on Monday. "Sister mo..." Xiang had a cold after a weekend, and muttered, "don''t forget to send the final draft to the Emperor today..." Jian Mo looked weak and cared about Xiangwan for a few words... It turned out that the little girl went out to play with her classmates on weekends and wore less smelly clothes. Then it became like this. "Mo Mo..." Sun Ke came over, looked at the night, and then said to Jian Mo with a strange look in his eyes, "the director told you to go." Jane Mo pursed her lips and nodded, then went to find Tang Haoyang. "The final draft is due today?" Jane nodded. Tang Haoyang looked at Jian Mo with a worried sigh at the bottom of his eyes and asked, "what are you going to do?" Jian Mo told Tang Haoyang about going to city a at the weekend. He frowned and thought it was too coincidental "I changed the design yesterday," Jian Mo smiled bitterly. "Now I can''t find the evidence to prove that I completed it independently. That''s all I can do." As soon as Tang Haoyang heard this, he immediately snorted coldly, "do you think the emperor is run by your family?" My husband drove it Jane Mo said something in her heart. She was happy that Gu Beichen agreed to change her design drawing! "OK, just send it to me..." Jian Mo''s voice is also dignified. "Director, I didn''t copy!" She firmly stressed. "It''s not what you say now..." Tang Haoyang frowned. He didn''t subscribe to the magazine, but it appeared on his desk. What does it mean... It means someone has used his heart! He always thought it wouldn''t pass like this... But now he can''t find a better way. "Try it first and see what the emperor says..." Tang Haoyang said. "If you can''t, just say that the final draft can''t come out and quit. After the big deal, Xiangyu and you become the blacklist of the emperor, which is better than being stabbed in the spine!" Jian Mo listened to Tang Haoyang''s angry voice and said that it was false not to be moved. "Director," she bit her teeth, "I will let the emperor use the new design..." she pursed her lips, "I''ll go to the emperor now!" Chapter 177 Tang Haoyang watched Jian Mo leave and sighed deeply. Although the probability of such a collision is too small, it still appeared... Because of the problem of time, it is inevitable that Jian Mo can''t stand. But he doesn''t want to see a designer who works so hard because of this accident... Now, he can only pray that the emperor agrees to change the design. Shang Junhao received a call from Xiao Jing on Saturday afternoon, saying that Xiangyu would change the design drawings, and the president personally agreed He looked at the 18 story original design rotating on the computer and sneered at the corners of his mouth. "Sure enough, you can''t give small companies a chance. If you have some capital, you don''t know your last name..." Shang Junhao murmured coldly. It was obvious in his eyes that the design drawing could not be used in the club. Shang Junhao turned off the 3D rendering and immediately got up and left the office A favorite design can''t be used. Shang Junhao''s heart is like stuffing a feather at the moment. It''s hard to tease him! That Jane can''t be so talented, can she? This is the emperor. She thought it was the vegetable market next to her house Thinking, Shang Junhao suddenly stopped and frowned How did the president agree to change the design? He felt strange from Xiangyu''s participation, but he didn''t seem to see the relationship between Jane Mo and the president? But who knows about beautiful women? Isn''t there also a rumor that she relies on hidden rules recently? Shang Junhao is not a gossip, but he is really uncomfortable that a design he likes very much will be stranded. After returning to the office, Shang Junhao dialed Gu Beichen. He was surprised to hear that someone was in the company... Didn''t he come back today? Why are you already in the company? "Then I''ll go up to you?" Shang Junhao asked in a condensed voice. Gu Beichen hung up after saying "well". He knew that Shang Junhao asked him about the design of the 18th floor of the club After a while, there was a knock on the door. Susan said, "Chen Shao, director Shang has arrived." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered, and then saw Shang Junhao come in, "sit down!" Shang Junhao sat down opposite Gu Beichen and asked directly, "president, why should the design drawing of the 18th floor of the club be changed temporarily?" Gu Beichen lifted his eagle eyes slightly, leaned slowly against the seat and said faintly: "because I saw a better design..." In a word, Shang Junhao choked and couldn''t react. Gu Beichen''s thin lips lifted a wanton evil charm radian and said faintly, "don''t worry, you''ll like the new design." Shang Junhao frowned, "it''s against the rules..." "The rules are set by people," Gu Beichen said gently. "If one is the rules and the other is a better design, which one would you choose?" Shang Junhao was silent because he was tangled. For itself, of course, it is to choose design... But the emperor is a large group in the world. Isn''t it ridiculous to have no rules. However, what the president said is reasonable... The rules are set by people, and this person is Gu Beichen, who has direct rights! Shang Junhao didn''t expect Jian Mo''s new design, but began to think that Jian Mo and Gu Beichen must have an improper transaction... Otherwise, how could the president agree to change? The most important thing is, what kind of woman does the president want? Why break his own principles? Thinking this way, Shang Junhao was even more angry and said angrily, "what is needed for the completion of a design drawing is to try our best... How can we achieve the effect by making temporary modifications?" Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "I still say that... You will like the new design." Shang Junhao understands that whether he likes it or not, the president means... If he doesn''t like it, he has to say he likes it! What else does he have to say? With a "drop", the internal telephone rang. Gu Beichen pressed the answer button and heard Susan say, "Chen Shao, lawyer Mo is online and requests a video call!" Last night, Gu Beichen decided to come back temporarily. Things in Donghai city were not finished, so Mo Shaochen didn''t come back together "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered and immediately looked at Shang Junhao. Shang Junhao''s heart was blocked badly, but he could only get up, "president, I''ll go down first." Gu Beichen nodded. When Shang Junhao turned around, he said, "after reading the new design drawing, write me a report." Shang Junhao stared at Gu Beichen in disbelief. At that moment... He really wanted to be tough and said that he quit the job and he was going to resign! Unfortunately, the imagination is full and the reality is skinny... He can only think about it. Shang Junhao returned to the office with a gloomy mood. He was tangled with the design drawings from beginning to end and completely missed a key point... That is, Gu Beichen seemed to know Jian Mo''s design very well, and he was clearly in Donghai city these two days! "Director, Xiangyu''s people have come to hand in the design drawings..." When Shang Junhao sat down, the secretary came in and said. He frowned slightly. Because he had the idea of entering the Lord first, he was disgusted when he heard Xiangyu. However, the president pressed it, and he had to hold it if he didn''t like it. "Let her in..." "OK!" The Secretary answered and left. Within two minutes, Jane Mo came in with the tube and notebook dressed in the design. "Hello!" Jane Mo tried her best to make herself calm. "I''m Jane Mo from Xiangyu. I''ll hand in the design!" "HMM..." Shang Junhao answered coldly. Before Jian Mo came, she had thought that she might be white eyed. After all, she passed Gu Beichen directly. But that''s what people are The first tangle, the second habit, it doesn''t matter directly behind. Anyway, people always say that she depends on hidden rules, so she depends... It''s better than being said to plagiarize! "This is the final draft of our company..." Jane Mo took out the sketch and opened the notebook. Shang Junhao is serious. He doesn''t want to see it at all... But he has to write a report! Lazy and disgusted, he took over the design drawing and asked, "I heard you want to change the design?" Jane Mo pursed her lower lip, "um..." "Why?" "For a more perfect interpretation!" Jane Mo pursed her lips and said. Shang Junhao listened, glanced at Jian Mo coldly and hummed coldly... Once a woman is beautiful, she will lose her direction! Thinking, he looked down When he saw the sketch frame, his pupils dilated... Shang Junhao carefully read the sketch and then looked at his notebook. Jian Mo hurriedly pressed the Enter key. Suddenly, the 3D rendering began to slide in Shang Junhao''s line of sight If he had just looked at Jian Mo and her design drawings with disdain and disdain, he was definitely looking at them with a sense of surprise and surprise at the moment. It was not until this moment that he felt that the sentence "talent is willfulness" simply meant Jane mo. Jian Mo pursed her lips and looked at Shang Junhao who hadn''t responded to the picture for a long time. She was particularly worried... Did she finally need to find Gu Beichen and agree to use this directly after agreeing to her change the design draft? Chapter 178 Shang Junhao looked at the design and didn''t speak. He looked at it again and again However, because of the angle, Jian Mo couldn''t see the surprise at the bottom of Shang Junhao''s eyes, but her lips were tighter and tighter. It took another ten minutes. Just when Jane moxin was about to finish, Shang Junhao looked up at her Jane Mo was staring more and more uneasy. She pursed her lower lip and said, "well... I know it''s wrong for me to change my design temporarily! However, as a designer, it''s my first time to cooperate with the emperor. I want to do my best." Shang Junhao saw that Jian Mo hesitated, but said it very seriously. The corners of his mouth smiled, "to tell the truth, before you came, I had a bad idea of you." Jane Mo had thought of this and smiled at herself. "But I''m very satisfied with your design." Shang Junhao said with a smile, "compared with the last design, it is obvious that this time more elements are integrated, and even the bath view of human nature makes me feel very amazing!" Jane Mo listened, and a smile gradually appeared in her eyes, "what do you mean..." "Good design. It''s obviously a wiser choice to use this!" Shang Junhao said with a smile, got up and stretched out his hand, "I hope the cooperation is happy." "Happy cooperation!" Jian Mo smiled and breathed a sigh of relief. After shaking his hand, monk Junhao took away the USB flash disk with the first draft of the design and left. Standing in front of the elevator, I pressed the button casually, as if I didn''t find that what I pressed was up. Jian Mo just looked at the elevator door with the emperor group logo printed on it, and the smile from the corners of his mouth gradually spread to the bottom of his eyes The sound of "Ding" glided over, the elevator arrived, and Jane Mo walked in... She smiled at the corners of her mouth, as if she had forgotten to press the elevator because she was too happy. She didn''t react until the elevator started up Jane Mo originally wanted to go out and change an elevator, but when she saw the number on the 79th floor, she bit her lower lip with joy and pressed "79". As the elevator goes up, Jane Mo''s excitement is self-evident. If the last design was inspired by Gu Beichen, does it mean that today''s design is recognized? Even if there is no competitor! The sound of "Ding" interrupted Jane Mo''s excited thoughts. At the moment when the elevator door opened... She had stepped out. But what she didn''t expect was that someone at the elevator door... Still didn''t know him. Jane Mo was a little embarrassed. She just wanted to make an excuse for herself, but she felt that she wanted to cover up. Finally, she simply pretended to be nothing and went out. The man looked at Jian Mo suspiciously and didn''t think much. He just thought it was an employee of the company After all, the imperial headquarters is on the 79th floor. There are so many people in all departments that it is impossible to know everyone. Susan sorted out the documents and was about to send them to Gu Beichen. She was a little surprised to see Jane. "Miss Jane?" Jane Mo''s mood was as bright as the sun outside. She looked at the document in Susan''s hand and asked, "do you mind if I send it in?" The document is just a daily document. Susan asked for it and handed it to Jane Mo with a smile. "Of course I don''t mind." She said, vaguely picking the tail of her smiling eyebrow and motioning. Jane Mo blushed a little by her eyes, but she was not too coy. Holding the document, Jane Mo knocked on the door of Gu Beichen''s office. "Come in!" A low and indifferent voice came from inside. Jane Mo smiled cunningly at the corners of her mouth, then pressed the doorknob and went in "Susan, get the information about the technology city ready." Gu Beichen wrote quickly on the document without lifting his head. Jian Mo rarely looks like Gu Beichen at work. They all say that serious people are the most charming... And as a man with high appearance, he looks like... He''s simply handsome. Gu Beichen felt something wrong and looked up with a slight frown... Seeing that it was Jian Mo, his thin lips couldn''t help but hook a evil smile, "how is it you?" "Can''t it be me?" Jian Mo raised her eyebrows and put the information on Gu Beichen''s work, and then said with a flattering face, "I passed the design!" "And then?" Gu Beichen asked with his dark ink pupil coagulating Jane mo. Jian Mo raised her eyebrows and was a little proud. "I designed a work that satisfied your design director in one day!" Gu Beichen looked at Jane morna as if her child had won the prize and waited for her parents to praise. She couldn''t help but raise her thin lips, "don''t go to work today?" "I''ll hand over the design drawings to the emperor!" Jian Mo stressed that he can represent himself in a fair and aboveboard meeting. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly deep. He looked at the time and said, "are you tired?" "Huh?" Jane didn''t react for a moment. "There''s a rest room inside..." Gu Beichen said faintly, but before she finished, Jane Mo blushed. "Gu Beichen, can you only think with your lower body?" Jane Mo is a little angry. He came up to share joy, but he just wants to go to bed! "Eh, my wife really wants to sleep with me?" Gu Beichen said softly, but he said helplessly, "but I''m still busy here, I can''t!" "..." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s teasing, and his face became even more red. If it''s just because of the problem of "going to bed", it''s because you think too much now. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s charming appearance in anger, hooked his thin lips and said, "wait for me for an hour and have lunch together." At this moment, Jane Mo wanted to find a seam to drill in, but she pretended to be arrogant, and then went to the lounge with her notebook. Lying in such a big bed, Jane Mo was not sleepy. However, maybe she was too nervous before. Now, because the design draft was passed, her nerves relaxed. Unexpectedly, within two minutes, her two eyelids began to fight uncontrollably After a while, the even breathing sound has echoed in different depths in the quiet space. Gu Beichen continued to deal with things. Just after Mo Shaochen had everything ready, he uniformly sent it to his mailbox Text messages come in at the right time. Gu Beichen opened it and looked at the content of the text message. The eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly, and the strange and treacherous Shen Li slipped through the depths of the ink pupil. There was a sneer on his lips. Gu Beichen sneered, and his eyes were completely disappointed. Gu Beichen got up, first looked at the door of the lounge and saw that it was closed, then walked to the French window... And then dialed the phone. "Exactly?" Gu Beichen asked with deep understanding. "Yes." The Dragon owl answered, "I''ve just read the information and let people confirm... People were controlled yesterday." "What do you say?" Gu Beichen asked with an eyebrow. The Dragon owl said indifferently, "I didn''t say who it was, but you and I can guess." The chilly side of Gu Beichen''s thin lips became deeper and deeper, "I wish... It wasn''t her!" "What are you going to do?" The Dragon owl is curious. Two women, Beichen sandwiched in the middle, his attitude will express everything. Gu Beichen''s sight in the distance is deeper and deeper, and there is a sad overflow in the bottom of his eyes that others can''t see, "boss long, I give her a chance... It doesn''t mean that Mo''er will be hurt!" Chapter 179 Dragon owl knows the reason why Shen Chu left five years ago, but when everyone thought Beichen didn''t know, he did... Now, Jian Mo''s affair involves Shen Chu again! The Dragon owl said coldly: "the final draft today, the emperor will put in a large number of advertisements tomorrow. Are you not afraid of Jian Mo or being hurt?" No matter whether it is clarified or not, people have the idea of entering the master first, which is very unfavorable to her in the future. "No..." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and smiled at his thin lips. That kind of smile, with coldness and joy, is a complex emotion that people can''t see through. The Dragon owl didn''t ask any more. He just said "you can control yourself" and hung up. Li Yunze handed him a glass of wine while long Xiao hung up the phone. "What did Beichen say?" "He has his way of handling..." the Dragon owl didn''t say much. Li Yunze shrugged, "Beichen should like Jian Mo?" He glanced. "I don''t think we have a thorough look to the South... It''s a woman who thinks carefully." The Dragon owl smiled and refused to comment. Between Beichen and Shen Chu, he was not optimistic about it since five years ago... As for Jian Mo, maybe life is always doomed. The late autumn sunshine seems to go so fast that it has moved to the West in the twinkling of an eye. Jane Mo felt a little itchy on her face. Her closed eyes wrinkled and wanted to escape... But the crisp heat always teased her. Some people opened their eyes angrily. Jane Mo''s head had no aura yet. She opened her mouth and wanted to scold "Don''t bother... Um..." The angry voice has not had time to finish, but has been swallowed in the lips and tongues with a faint smell of tobacco The ultimate kiss shows the greed under hegemony, sometimes gentle and sometimes crazy. Jian Mo from the beginning of some chaos to the back of the cooperation, until the two people breathe gradually heavy Gu Beichen let go of Jian Mo, put his forehead against her forehead, and said in a low and magnetic voice, "little lazy pig, you haven''t got up yet after work?" Jane Mo was still breathing, and the dusk had reminded her that she had slept until the afternoon! Because of Gu Beichen''s ambiguous behavior, Jian Mo''s heart jumped uncontrollably. She said with some dissatisfaction: "you press me, how can I get up?" She said discontentedly, trying to hide her embarrassment. Gu Beichen didn''t get up. He smiled and said, "why don''t you... Don''t get up, let''s do sports directly." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. "Chen Shao, you are always so careless in the office... Do your employees make it?" At the same time, Gu Beichen got up and laughed at his dissatisfaction Words fall, also do not give Jane Mo reason, people have been out of the lounge. Jane Mo skimmed her mouth, but got out of bed... There was a place to wash in the lounge. She simply cleaned it up. It didn''t take ten minutes. "Let''s go..." Gu Beichen said, then took his suit and coat and walked out. "Where are you going?" Jane Mo asked, "I have to go back to the company." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, "I''ve asked the design department to inform your company that it will hold a meeting here today..." he paused. His eyes were deep and his tone was ambiguous with teasing. "Some people are so greedy for my bed, they have to find a reason, don''t they?" With that, he opened the door of the office in a daze. "Chen Shao..." "Car key." Gu Beichen said while Xiao Jing spoke. Xiao Jing gave Gu Beichen the car key and saw that Jian Mo came out with her computer. He didn''t know what he was muttering. Sometimes he glanced at Gu Beichen with dissatisfaction. Take the exclusive elevator directly to the underground parking. Gu Beichen gentleman pulled the co pilot''s door for Jian Mo, and then motioned her to get on the bus. Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen and became more and more confused, but she got on the bus without thinking much. "Where the hell are you going?" Jane Mo looks around. It''s the high tide after work. Is it really good for her to sit in Gu Beichen''s car like this? Gu Beichen said proudly, "either get off or don''t ask!" "..." Jane Mo listened and was speechless. Gu Beichen started the car and saw that Jian Mo''s face was still a little bleary because she didn''t wake up for long. "Tomorrow, the design drawings of the emperor club will be exposed through special topics of the media..." "Oh!" Jane Mo responded and was glad that she had changed the design drawing. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, "there will be a lot of people evaluating your design... Of course, there will be people wondering, your design has changed!" Jane Mo drooped her eyes and was silent. In fact, she was also worried If it is dug out, will someone think that she changed the design drawing only after she was found to have copied it. However, on second thought... Do you think if you don''t believe yourself, do you still try to be believed? Looking at Jian Mo''s changeable expression, Gu Beichen sighed softly, "Jian mo..." "Huh?" Jian Mo glances at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen glanced at her and said faintly, "in the future, you can find me if you have something..." The low voice was full of charm under magnetism. Jane Mo didn''t know why Gu Beichen said so suddenly, but her heart was still warm. The car drove for a long time and finally stopped in the parking lot in front of a French restaurant whose environment looked very tall. Jane Mo looked puzzled and heard Gu Beichen''s teasing voice, "don''t worry, I won''t expose you..." he paused and said with a smile, "well, I''ll pay for the charter!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and felt a little stuffed up. Gu Beichen''s smile deepened, "get off." After that, he had unfastened his seat belt, got out of the car first, threw the car key to the parking boy, and then entered the restaurant with one hand. Jian Mo got off the bus when Gu Beichen was about to enter the restaurant... They''ve been packing so often recently. Is it really good? Some got out of the car angrily, and Jane Mo rushed into the restaurant at a very fast speed like a thief. Gu Beichen looked at her with disgust, as if to say: pay attention to your image! Jane Mo is a little dissatisfied... I can''t blame her. Is it really good for them to cover the venue like this during the peak hours? Is it really good? What a mess These two people are about to divorce. Now they go out like this all day. Later, she becomes an abandoned woman and has another topic! "Chen Shao," the waiter greeted, "please!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and went down to the table under the guidance of the waiter. Jane Mo followed and asked, "why do you want to eat here?" "Aren''t you flattering and asking me for a gift?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrow. "I''ll treat you to dinner... Well, you don''t need to thank me too much." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she immediately smiled, but her face was proud and said, "the gift is a meal?" She has some dissatisfaction. Gu Beichen smiled and was amused by Jian Mo''s appearance, "what do you want?" Then he looked around, "at this time, the Charter fee here is more than one million!" "It''s better to give me a million dollars directly!" Jane skimmed her mouth. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep. "Haven''t you already given you a supplementary card? Why, not enough?" Jane Mo shrugged and pulled her shoulder, "I don''t want to use..." Gu Beichen frowned and didn''t say anything about Jian Mo''s little discomfort. He just picked his eyebrow and asked, "what do you want? Diamonds, clothes, bags?" "Vulgar!" Jane Mo rolled her eyes. "I don''t lack those!" Gu Beichen''s smile grew deeper and deeper, nodded approvingly, "well, you really don''t lack..." He Gu Beichen''s wife, how can he lack these things? Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s smile and was annoyed... She went upstairs by accident, but later she really wanted to share her happiness with him. Feeling a little depressed, Jane Mo knows what she is greedy for... But she can''t say anything. When I turned my head, I just fell on the white grand piano in the center of the restaurant "Didn''t Li Jinxi say you played the piano very well?" Jane Mo suddenly raised her eyebrows and looked at Gu Beichen. "Then play one for me!" Last time, Gu Beichen refused... But Li Jinxi''s words seemed that he should have great attainments in this field? Chapter 180 Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, "I haven''t played the piano for a long time..." "..." Jian Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth. She thought that the last time Li Jinxi asked, he didn''t play because he was rusty, right? "It''s all right. I don''t dislike your bad playing!" Jane Mo grinned and held back a smile. She slipped in her eyes and said cunningly, "I''m the only audience anyway." Looking at Jian Mo''s happy appearance, Gu Beichen''s eyes become deep He gently coagulated the cunning at the bottom of her eyes and slowly asked, "after listening to Su Jun''s piano, which can make people''s ears pregnant, can you still listen to me?" Gu Beichen''s words were full of deep emotions under ridicule. Jane was stunned, and then secretly said: how can this man always hold a place and pinch it? "It''s all right. I won''t compare you with him..." Jane Mo said with a flattering face, completely waiting for Gu Beichen''s embarrassment. "Because you''re my husband... My husband is invincible in my eyes, and no one can compare with him." Looking at Jian Mo''s increasingly flattering and cunning appearance, Gu Beichen''s vision is deeper and deeper "I don''t play the piano easily!" Gu Beichen said. Jane Mo sat up straight, "but I''m your wife!" Gu Beichen listened and nodded clearly, "well, you are my wife..." he said a deep sentence with some meaning, and then turned his head to the grand piano on the central platform, "what do you want to hear?" "Whatever, you''re the best..." Jane Mo is right. No matter what, Gu Beichen must have been born without playing the piano for a long time. Gu Beichen looked back at Jian Mo, then got up and walked to the piano... And then sat down on the bench. Jane Mo''s arms supported the table, and the back of her hand held her cheek to watch... She couldn''t help sighing. If a man is handsome, he is a demon. Why? Look at Gu Beichen, who is dressed like a beast. He hasn''t played yet. As long as he sits on the piano... He has actually integrated together. The slender and powerful fingers rested on the black-and-white keys. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo and smiled at the corners of his mouth, "give it to... Her!" No name, no romantic name. Just one "she", but straight into Jane Mo''s heart. The low and magnetic voice is as mellow as a cello. It''s clear that she hasn''t heard much in the past two years, but now her heart has stopped because of those three words. Jane Mo gently fanned her eyes... How good would it be if the years were quiet at the moment? It''s not a very cheerful song, nor is it familiar to everyone... But it seems to give a soul under Gu Beichen''s bony fingers. Jane Mo listened quietly. Such a soft and yearning song pulled her into Gu Beichen''s world Never looked at him so quietly and then looked softly at him. I''ve never seen him look so elegant in addition to his work and bed. Jane Mo''s nose is suddenly sour, very sour... Just because what you want often doesn''t necessarily belong to you! Gu Beichen raised his hand slowly when he dropped the last note At that moment, Jane Mo was astringent, but the most heartfelt smile filled the corners of her mouth. He plays not unfamiliar at all, even very good. If he also develops in this field, I''m afraid his achievements will not be under Su Jun''s departure When Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen, his sight became more and more blurred, the sound of a violin suddenly came. Jane Mo sat up straight and looked at the sound I saw a man in a tuxedo slowly playing the violin towards her, and behind him, a waiter in a suit and vest pushed a cart. The man playing the violin has stood on the side of Jian Mo, and Gu Beichen has come over from the piano and picked up a bunch of stars on the cart Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen blankly, puzzled and more surprised. Such romance came too suddenly, too TV series, too novels... So that she felt too unreal. The violin music suddenly changed, and a soft "happy birthday song" echoed in such a big restaurant Jane Mo''s eyes widened, and then she remembered that today is October 24... Her birthday! "Happy birthday, Mo''er..." Gu Beichen smiled on one side of his thin lips, handed the flowers forward and said. Jane Mo''s eyes turned red in an instant. "How do you know?" The first year they met, he was abroad on her birthday, and the gift was prepared by Susan, full of machinery. Last year, on her birthday, he was still abroad, and the gift was also prepared by Susan... So that she never expected someone to accompany her on her birthday since the fall of Jane''s family! But this year, just before she and Gu Beichen could divorce at any time, he was around on her birthday! God has really treated her well... At least, in the next days, give her more moving memories, so that when she turns around, she is not so sad. Jane Mo took the bouquet, pursed her lips and smiled "I can remember the meeting. Why don''t I know today?" Gu Beichen naturally asked with an eyebrow. Jane Mo smiled. It turned out that... Satisfaction is such a taste. In due time, the waiter had put the cake on the cart on the table and lit the candle with the number of 23. "Make a wish?" Gu Beichen said with evil charm. Jian Mo pursed his lips and smiled. The crystal chandelier in the restaurant, which was not too bright, but with blurred color, fell on Gu Beichen''s cold and carved face, setting off his awe inspiring depth. Jane Mo put down the flowers, closed her eyes to the cake and made a wish I hope my mother can be safe, I hope... Such happiness precipitates in my heart! Two wishes, two kinds of heartache... Jane Mo opened her eyes, the bottom of her eyes had been filled with a thin layer of water mist, but the corner of her mouth blew out the candle with a smile. The night has been blurred. At the beginning of the lantern, neon lights converge into a unique brilliance of the night. Jane Mo smiled and asked angrily, "there are no gifts..." "Didn''t you just play the piano?" Gu Beichen sat down opposite. Jian Mo was dissatisfied and said, "but... You gave me a day to finish the design!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and snapped his fingers Jian Mo was slightly stunned and saw another waiter pushing the cart. Gu Beichen''s depressed voice came at the right time, "here''s your gift..." "Really casual..." Jane Mo listened to Gu Beichen''s tone and left her mouth. She took the box and opened the lid. When she saw the birthday gift, her face was full of surprise. "Where did you find these? You don''t know. I''ve been looking for them since I wanted to learn design... But they''re out of print!" Jian Mo looks at Gu Beichen with a surprised face, looking for the answer. Gu Beichen looked at her smiling and said calmly, "there are things I can''t do?" In a word, I was arrogant! Jane Mo was ecstatic, and Gu Beichen looked at her, and her sight became deep She said she loved money, but she never wanted to belong to anything other than her. Women like jewelry when they receive gifts, but when she looks at those out of print design books, she is happy like a child who has got candy. "Don''t be so nice to me..." Suddenly, Jane Mo pursed her lips and said slowly. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "why?" Chapter 181 Jane Mo''s eyes have a touch of complex sadness, which is fleeting. She just put on her usual disguise and said, "because I''m afraid you''re not good for me, I''m lost..." What she said was half joking and half serious, so people couldn''t see what she thought. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep and sharp eyes, as if to see through her at a glance, "you are my wife, I''m not good to you, who is good to you?" "Tut Tut, it''s so sweet..." Jane Mo laughed and didn''t dare to look into Beichen''s eyes too much. For fear that he would see through her disguise, she quickly changed the topic and said, "how do you know I want these books?" "Aren''t these books what everyone who studies architectural design wants?" Gu Beichen asked. "Also......" Jane Mo smiled and raised her head. Because she was too happy, her eyes were bent into crescent moon. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s satisfied and moved smile. Thin lips involuntarily also hooked up a smile and said, "I sent you two gifts in a row today... Reciprocity. Should you repay me in the evening?" Jane Mo listened, turned her eyes, pretended not to hear, put the book baby aside and said, "Oh, I''m so hungry... Spiritual food really can''t satisfy!" Then she picked up the knife and fork and was ready to fill her stomach One day, I had breakfast in the morning. I was sleeping at noon and didn''t feel hungry... I just didn''t feel it, but now looking at the delicious food in front of me, Jane Mo felt hungry. If it was just to deliberately avoid Gu Beichen''s ambiguity, after eating two mouthfuls at the moment, I''m really hungry. Gu Beichen also knew that Jian Mo didn''t eat all day and didn''t say anything more. He just asked the chef to make some special things and send them up "I can''t eat so much." Jane Mo said when she saw a lot of things coming up again. Gu Beichen cut the prawns gracefully. The eagle''s eyes lifted slightly and looked at the simple foam in his eyes. Then he hung his eyes and continued to cut. His thin lips gently opened and said slowly: "eat more, or you won''t have the strength to deal with it if you exercise too much at night." Jane Mo didn''t react at first. When she did, she almost sprayed out the food she didn''t swallow Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with a disdainful face, "what about the image?" Jian Mo swallowed the food in some embarrassment, and then hummed: "sure enough, I can''t communicate with animals who can only think with the lower body..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen didn''t hear clearly. He picked his eyebrow and said suspiciously. Jane Mo pulled an arc of skin laughing and meat not laughing at the corner of her mouth, "I mean, what my husband taught me is... I''m really rude under your elegant behavior. I''m deeply sorry for the impact on you!" Gu Beichen looked at her and smiled, but sneered, "can you deceive me with that little thought?" Jane Mo glanced and said proudly, "but you don''t know what I said." "It doesn''t matter..." Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, his body leaned forward slightly, lowered the magnetism of his voice and said, "let''s go back and talk directly with our lower body at night!" Poof Jane Mo dares to guarantee that Gu Beichen is intentional, absolutely intentional, it must be intentional! Looking at Jian Mo''s shriveled appearance, Gu Beichen slowly got up, then put the plate of cut prawns in front of Jian Mo, and said teasingly, "supplement nutrition!" "You think I''m a pig?" Jian Mo was depressed, "I can''t eat it..." Gu Beichen, with a thin smile on his thin lips, said slowly in a low and magnetic voice, "it''s good to raise you as a pig..." Jian Mo pushed down the shrimp plate angrily and said angrily, "I won''t eat." However, she patronized the depression, but didn''t take care of the gradually spreading doting at the bottom of Beichen''s eyes... It was from the heart, not always ambiguous as before. The stars at night are full of ink sky. The light shield on the upper floor of the apartment is folded. Outside the toughened glass, it seems that there is an ink sky within reach With the stars as companions, the two people who had already fused with each other turned into the most tender scenery at night. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen dropped Jian Mo and lay on the wide recliner looking at the stars. "Huh?" Jane Mo also looked at the stars, because she didn''t feel sleepy after sleeping all day. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but his thin lips gently pursed a thin arc. After a long time, he said, "it''s all right..." Jane Mo frowned, but didn''t ask any more. She curled up in Gu Beichen''s arms and enjoyed the rare calm of the two people. However, this calm did not last long and was disturbed by Gu Beichen''s phone. Gu Beichen took his cell phone and looked at it. After the call, he picked it up and put it in his ear... He didn''t speak, but listened to the people inside. Even though Jian Mo didn''t know what was said inside, he still felt Gu Beichen''s unhappiness, and even in the end... A breath that let the air condense gradually filled his body. "I''ll be there in half an hour." Gu Beichen finally said a word and hung up. Jane Mo has got up. She has always been very considerate. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with some guilt, "I can''t accompany you to after zero..." "I''m already very happy today." Jane Mo said from her heart. Gu Beichen deeply coagulated his eyes. If things weren''t too difficult, he also wanted to stay willfully at the moment... Unfortunately, the urgent thing couldn''t allow him to be willful. He got up and changed his clothes, but in a few minutes, Gu Beichen had taken off his nightgown and came out in a suit At the moment, he is not some "obscene" when he is in deep love, nor is he evil when he is ambiguous. The three piece handmade suit wrapped him up with a figure comparable to that of a model. Jane Mo took a tie and tied it to Gu Beichen. It was something she had done many times in the past two years... But at this moment, her heart felt like falling into a dark corner. I don''t know if today is too happy and romantic, so that she is worried about gain and loss "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen felt something wrong with Jian mo. Jane morlian lifted her head from the complex emotion at the bottom of her eyes, pulled the tie with a smile at the corners of her mouth, padded her toes, and then gently dropped a kiss at the corners of Gu Beichen''s mouth. Gu Beichen''s eyes suddenly became deep, like an ancient pond, turning out layers of whirlpools that would devour people at any time. Jian Mo loosened his tie, but Gu Beichen suddenly grabbed the back of Jian Mo''s head and pushed himself... At the same time, his handsome face bent down, and his thin lips instantly grabbed the two delicate lips Chapter 182 Sleepless nights always make people feel that they can''t wait for the dawn Jane Mo is lying on the bed, and the quilt is littered with books sent by Gu Beichen... They are all the books she has been looking forward to for a long time, but she can''t read them at the moment. "Alas..." Jian Mo sighed softly. If a person falls into love, he can always hurt himself. The second hand revolved round and round. Jian Mo took the mobile phone, but found two missed calls and several text messages on it. After returning, the bag was thrown onto the sofa, and then she and Gu Beichen seemed unable to wait for a moment to enter the hot war In addition, when I slept in the rest room of Gu Beichen''s office at that time, I turned off the mute. Later, I forgot to adjust the voice. I didn''t know someone was calling and texting. Jian Mo didn''t answer. It was two people calling... One Li Xiaoyue and the other Chu Zixiao. Jane Mo didn''t answer the phone first, but first turned over the text message, which was also sent by the two of them. Chu Zixiao: for you, it''s missing "Happy Birthday" for two years, but for me... Every year today, I say "Happy Birthday" to my foam! Can I find the first way back for my birthday? Jian Mo looked at Chu Zixiao''s text message and said in her heart that she didn''t feel at all. It''s all deceptive... But love is like this. Love is love, don''t love is don''t love, can''t tolerate any falsehood. Jian Mo didn''t reply to Chu Zixiao. Now his indifference is right. For him... Is the best. Open Li Xiaoyue''s short message: happy birthday, girl! It''s estimated that you''ve forgotten about the design. You want to celebrate at night... No one answered your phone. At first glance, you forget your friends! Jane Mo originally wanted to reply to Li Xiaoyue''s phone call, but considering that she is in a wrong mood at the moment, she doesn''t want to feel sad about spring and autumn in the middle of the night, and her best friend is also sad. Finally, Jane Mo just replied to the text message in the past: I hope you will have me every year on your future birthday, and you will be there every year on my birthday! Li Xiaoyue didn''t reply immediately, but after a while, she replied: girl, you and I have a lifetime... Even if this lifetime is very long or short. Jane Mo smiled at the message and finally took a deep breath Perhaps all this greed should come to an end. Just because, strong go on, she is her... Lost her, already not her. Jane Mo turned over and got out of bed. She went to pour herself a glass of water and came back. The mobile phone screen just flashed Because I just forgot to turn on the bell again, the mobile phone just silently flashed the screen to protest. Jane Mo put down her water glass, took her mobile phone and cut off the text message. It''s not Li Xiaoyue''s, but Su Junli''s! Su Junli: is it convenient? Jane Mo frowned slightly and then went back: convenience... Has she come back? Su Junli: Well, just got off the plane and went downtown... If it''s convenient, get down! Jane Mo frowns. Come down? Su Jun Lishi also knew she was confused and sent a text message: I''m across the road from runzeyuan. If it''s convenient, I''ll come down. If it''s inconvenient, forget it. Jane Mo looked at the message and didn''t think much. She just went back for "ten minutes" and changed her clothes. The night in Los Angeles, which is about to enter winter, is already very cold. Jane Mo wrapped her down vest and looked across the road with her neck hooked... She didn''t see Su Junli and his car. "Didi, Didi!" At the right time, the sound of a horn came. Jian Mo looked at it and saw a black Ferrari trotting over there. Jane Mo ran over and asked, "how..." Before he could finish, a delicate clavicle chain hung in front of him as he sat down. Jian Mo stared at the clavicle chain, mechanically fanned his eyes, and then looked at Su Junli with some doubts. Su Jun Li smiled mildly, and his handsome face was soft as warm wind, dispersing the cold outside, "happy birthday..." "How do you... Know?" Jane Mo didn''t expect to receive her fourth birthday wish today. Su Junli smiled and didn''t say why he knew. He just raised his eyebrow and said, "although giving jewelry is a little tacky, when I saw this necklace, I thought it was very suitable for you at the first sight." Jane Mo fanned her eyes and looked at the pendant under the clavicle chain I didn''t pay attention at that time. Now I found that the pendant was made of double m strings. "Thank you..." Jane Mo said sincerely. Su Junli smiled and looked at Jane Mo''s gradually filled eyes with love. His heart was slightly put down, "can I put it on for you?" Jane Mo nodded with a smile, slightly sideways, lifted her hair and asked Su Jun to wear it for her. Su Junli, a gentleman, wears a necklace for Jian mo. he is afraid of causing her embarrassment. During the whole process, his hands and the skin of her neck don''t touch at all The light of a street lamp refracts through the windshield and shines on the clavicle chain. Su Jun Li slightly raised his eyebrows, "it''s really suitable for you..." Jane Mo also likes it very much, not only because the clavicle chain is exquisite, but also because the pendant is in the shape of double M. Su Jun took a deep look at Shuang m from his sight. This is his birthday gift he had already prepared. He thought he couldn''t come back to her today Time slips past midnight, and a new day becomes a new starting point at this time. "It''s late. Go back?" Su Junli said softly, "I''m glad to have the opportunity to spend the last half hour of your birthday with you." Jane Mo''s heart said that it was a lie not to be grateful, but that kind of gratitude had nothing to do with love, only the loneliness of worrying about gain and loss. The next day, the weather in Los Angeles was still very good, and the sun waved its heat from the east very early. The final design of the emperor club, the advertising renderings from the first floor to the 18th floor, blew up the whole media circle in Los Angeles at the moment of sunrise... It is doomed that today''s topic will be led. Naturally, what others pay most attention to here is the design drawing of the 18th floor of the emperor club. From Xiangyu being able to participate in the draft comparison, to defeating the two most famous companies in the architectural design circle, harchitects and CCD, and then to designer Jian Mo relying on the hidden rules... There is no doubt that today is the last moment of real confirmation. Shen Chu saw that the design of the 10th floor had been released on the rolling news. Before noon, the design of the 18th floor would also be released The corners of his mouth were cold and hissed. Shen Chu called Gu Beichen: "are you free at noon?" "What?" Gu Beichen''s voice is so calm that people can''t hear his feelings. Shen Chu smiled, "I have nothing to eat with you..." Gu Beichen stood in front of the French window, and the rotating advertisement of the design effect drawing of the imperial club was played on the display screen behind him, "I''m afraid not at noon..." Shen Chu was a little disappointed, "well... Forget it." Gu Beichen listened to Shen Chu''s loss. The eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly and asked slowly, "Xiaochu, do you want to talk to me today?" When asked this sentence, the rotation advertisement of the club has been put on the 12th floor People will play the pictures on the 18th floor, and there will be two effects on the last two floors, which are about to be played in the next six floors! Chapter 183 Shen Chu thought Gu Beichen asked about her leaving five years ago. She was silent. She said slowly, "do you believe as long as I say?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed with an awe inspiring radian. He knew that Shen Chu was not talking about the design drawing at the moment, "you say... I believe it." He replied. "Then at noon..." Shen Chu bit his teeth and said, "Beichen, I''m afraid I don''t have the courage to speak!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes fell in front, and the ink pupil was so deep that people couldn''t see to the end, but there was a deep smile on one side of the thin lip, with a strange smell. "What would you like for lunch?" Gu Beichen asked. Shen Chu is watching the silent TV. At the moment, the financial Herald is talking with the invited Professor of Architectural Design Department of Los Angeles University about the design drawings that have been broadcast "I can do anything. If you''re busy, just stay near your company." Shen Chu said thoughtfully. There was something dignified in his words. It seemed that she finally decided to say what she didn''t want to say. At this moment... She made a great determination. Gu Beichen was so indifferent that there was no expression on his face. He just said, "why don''t you... Eat in the emperor?" As soon as Shen Chu heard this, a bright light slipped across the bottom of her eyes. She suppressed the blood that had gradually begun to be manic and deliberately asked, "I''ll show up with you... OK?" Gu Beichen chuckled, "anyway... Sooner or later, isn''t it?" "Beichen..." Shen Chu frowned slightly. I don''t know what Gu Beichen meant by this repetition recently? "Call me when you arrive, huh?" Gu Beichen just said. Shen Chu answered and hung up... I don''t know why, she always felt a little uneasy, as if there would be mistakes in something that was safe. Thinking, Shen Chu dialed a group of numbers indefinitely "Miss Shen..." a male voice came over the phone, showing courteous respect. "How are you doing over there?" Shen Chu asked. "Ms. Shen can rest assured that as soon as the design drawing of the 18th floor is published, there will be reports and doubts about the plagiarism of Jian Mo''s design drawing in the meager, forums and news..." After listening to this, Shen Chu was relieved, "this time, I''ll pay the balance to your account." As soon as the man heard it, he said more flatteringly: "Miss Shen, you can rest assured... Ensure that according to your requirements, pictures and texts are displayed, so that Jane Mo can become a cover up even if she wants to explain!" "Yes." Shen Chu answered, "feel free to contact me if you have any questions..." "Good!" Shen Chu hung up the phone, looked at the time and then looked at TV. He has started the penultimate round of effect picture advertising time. The corners of his mouth slightly scratched cold hiss, and Shen Chu''s eyes were dark and deep: Jian Mo, if I have a chance, I will show you that Beichen despised your face when he heard you plagiarize! Shen Chu went upstairs and changed his clothes. Then he went to the car As the noon is getting closer and closer, Shen Chu''s expectation is getting tighter and tighter! Jane Mo''s plagiarism just set off the helplessness she had left... Beichen''s heart, it seems impossible not to come to her! Xiangyu construction engineering company, architectural design department. Everyone was excited to discuss the design of each floor of the emperor. One by one, they lamented that the design companies that can cooperate with the emperor are indeed the best. Naturally, they say so, largely because Xiangyu also participated in the club design this time... It is still the top priority of the 18th floor. "Sister Mo, I''m a little nervous and want to go to the bathroom..." Xiang night accompanied Jane Mo to the competition. She knew the design effect drawing, but she was still very nervous. Jian Mo looked at Xiangwan and said seriously, "I have modified the design. I hope it won''t surprise you later." I don''t care if it''s late. The initial drawings are out. Even if it''s modified, what big changes can it make? Everyone is talking and waiting for the design drawing of the 18th floor... Because of confidentiality, not many people have seen the design effect drawing. Sun Ke looked at Jian Mo and saw that she was not worried at all. Instead, she was worried that what the director said was true! But the other party doesn''t care, or there''s no such thing at all, but she''s worried here "It''s already on the 16th floor..." Ding Dang said with a frozen voice covering his "sudden" jumping heart. "Ah, who surprised me? I''m afraid that foam beat the design of harchitects and CCD. I''m amazed that I shouldn''t stay in the design industry and should go home and farm!" "Just do it..." Xu Siyu glanced at her, but he was obviously very excited. With one arm supporting the work grid, Da Xiong looked at Jian Mo curiously and asked, "let''s reveal it first, Jane beauty?" After the failure of seeking communication last time, Daxiong and Mo Xiaoya were embarrassed for a long time. Fortunately, Daxiong was persistent and didn''t give up. Now they have returned to the previous state of ignoring and continuing one by one. "You''ll know in ten minutes..." Jane Mo smiled. "But it can be revealed that I only used two colors!" "Black and red..." Xiang wanran answered. Qiao Zirong rolled his eyes. "What he said is equal to not saying..." "Director!" At the right time, Sun Ke saw Tang Haoyang come in and shouted quickly. "Waiting for Jane Mo''s design?" Tang Haoyang asked, scanning the circle and finally falling on Jian mo. He understood the process of this matter, and also knew that Jian Mo had passed the pass of the chief designer of the emperor in one day and agreed to change the design drawing. What he is worried about now is that even if the previous drawings are removed, there are still people participating in the comparison who have seen the previous designs... If someone with a heart really wants to find something, it is still a hidden danger. When it was time for dinner, Emperor''s employees went to the canteen one after another and were all talking about the advertising of the design renderings of emperor''s Club today Gu Beichen took Shen Chu into the staff restaurant, where several TVs were advertising the emperor''s club. "Does Miss Shen have anything special to eat?" Susan asked with a professional smile on her lips. Shen Chu shook his head with a smile, "I''m not particularly picky about food." "OK." Susan answered, and then turned to pick up the meal with Xiao Jing. Since the canteen is basically an executive, although everyone is curious that Gu Beichen brought a woman to dinner today, naturally no one really dares to see it openly However, some sharp eyed people still see that Shen Chu is the daughter of JK. I can''t help wondering why JK Qianjin is with the President Susan''s meal came back soon. The emperor''s welfare to the employees was very good. Even the employees'' meal was nutritionally matched. "Remember the last time I came here for dinner with you... It was five years ago!" Shen Chu, with some emotion, scratched his lips, "at that time, you were not..." "Emperor president!" Gu Beichen answered, and Mo Tong looked at Shen Chu deeply. Shen Chu smiled astringently again. Some mechanically picked up a piece of rice with chopsticks and put it into his mouth. In due time, the competent voice of the host has been heard on TV, "the 18th floor has been the most concerned since the design comparison... Next, let''s read the design drawings of the last floor first, and then analyze why Xiangyu can finally defeat the two strong competitors." After that, the picture has been switched, and the design renderings of black and red tone and main tone are reflected in 3D. Shen Chu raised her eyes and looked at it. She pretended to be careless. At the moment she saw the design drawing, her pupils expanded and her hand holding chopsticks clenched instantly Chapter 184 On TV, there are still black and red color design drawings, but they are still very different from those when they participated in the comparison before. If the previous design makes people feel like a hell of relief, then this design is not only so narrow-minded emotion, but also full of the deepest bath hope of human nature. Shen Chu tried to keep calm. She even pulled a calm but appreciative smile from the corners of her mouth, "this design is great..." Gu Beichen looked at Shen Chu from beginning to end. His indifferent sight made people unable to understand his real thoughts at the moment. "Oh?" Gu Beichen said softly, then looked at the TV, "OK..." Shen Chu didn''t see Gu Beichen''s difference. He just clenched his hand and asked, "haven''t you seen her design before?" Gu Beichen''s sight became deep, "Jian Mo is an independent person..." Shen Chu pulled down the corner of his mouth, looked at Gu Beichen''s appreciation at the bottom of his eyes and smiled with self mockery, "her eyes are like me, and she also studies architectural design... Beichen, you look for my shadow on her, aren''t you?" "No one is anyone''s shadow, nor will it be another person''s double..." Gu Beichen slowly leaned back on the seat, his thin lips gently closed, and his sight gradually became dark and bottomless. Shen Chu was fluffy when he saw her. I don''t know why. Gu Beichen''s eyes seemed to see through her. "Sorry, I''ll go to the bathroom..." Shen Chu said, and the man had grabbed the bag and got up. Gu Beichen didn''t move or open his mouth. He just sat in the back of Shen Chu quietly. The disappointment at the bottom of his eyes became more and more strong... And such disappointment was accompanied by a kind of astringent sadness. She hurried to see if someone had dialed in the bathroom at the same time. "I was just about to call you," the man said as soon as he called. "Why are the designs different?" Shen Chu bit her teeth. "Put down the report first..." she looked at herself in the mirror. Because of miscalculation, her face had become a little ferocious. "But I''ve done everything..." the man was a little tangled. Shen Chu clenched his gum and said, "don''t worry, I''ll still give you the money, and this report will be released, but... Now is not the time." The design drawing of Jian Mo has changed... Why has it changed? What she saw in Beichen''s office that day was clearly not this design drawing Shen Chu angrily hung up the phone. She pinched it. Because she used her strength, there was a "yiyiyi" sound from her mobile phone. After several deep breaths, Shen Chu closed his eyes, pressed down the manic breath in his heart, opened his eyes, then made up his makeup and went back to the restaurant At the moment, on TV, the host and the professor of Architectural Design Department of Luoda are talking about the design of the three companies in this round. When the professor mentioned the 18th floor design, the tone became excited and even praised Jian Mo''s unlimited future if he could continue his further study At the end, the professor said proudly: "when Jane Mo was at Luoyang University, she was also my student..." ¡­¡­ At the moment, there was jubilation in Xiangyu, and the sound of praising Jian Mo came one after another. "God, foam, what''s in your mind?" Da Xiong said with admiration, "you must be ''super body'' attached to the body. Have you overexploited your brain capacity?" "Yes, yes, Mo Mo, I really want to open your head and see if you are different from us?" Ding Dang said with envy. Qiao Zirong sighed, "the gap between people... Why is it so big?" Mo Xiaoya a pair of Queen fan''er''s arms around her chest, "Mo Mo is a top student of Luoda, which is incomparable..." The outside world thinks that Jane Mo is superior by hidden rules, but the people in the design department know that she is not a vase! Her talent is in direct proportion to her beauty! Facing the night bitterly, for a moment, she twisted her eyebrows and tilted her head in meditation, and for a moment, she looked at Jane Mo suspiciously and wanted to stop talking Sister Mo said there would be changes... But this change is too big, isn''t it? Although the current design is more popular than the previous one, it is completely a new design Tang Haoyang looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes and spent a day making such a design. If the design before Jian Mo was plagiarized, how to convince people? "Attention, everyone..." Sun Ke''s voice suddenly came, "president Yu called..." she deliberately and mysteriously paused with a smile and looked at everyone looking at her curiously. She was depressed and excited and said, "this afternoon, without affecting the normal progress, the design department will have a holiday, eat, drink and have fun... President Yu will pay the bill and the salary will be paid!" The crowd was stunned at first, and then shouted excitedly A smile spread from the corners of Jian Mo''s mouth. She took her mobile phone and wanted to share the joy of this moment with Gu Beichen... However, in the end, the edited text message was saved in the draft box and not sent out. ¡­¡­ Shen Chu''s food was tasteless. What he put into his mouth was like chewing wax. What''s more, one breath is stuck in the chest and can''t be relieved. After dinner, Shen Chu and Gu Beichen went back to his office together. He poured two glasses of red wine, handed one to Shen Chu, and then sat down. "Uncomfortable?" Gu Beichen looked at Shen Chu''s face and asked with a slight frown. Shen Chu was surprised and looked at Gu Beichen for several seconds. He pursed his lips and shook his head with a smile. Gu Beichen looked deeply, "when are you going to tell me the reason?" Shen Chu lowered his eyes, "is it still important to you now?" Then she raised her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen, "did I say that you would divorce her?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and didn''t answer. Shen Chu laughed with self mockery, "Beichen, if you can''t go back, what''s the point of saying it?" "Who knows?" Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and said. He lifted his goblet and sipped the scarlet wine, letting the aroma swallow after the taste buds spread. "There''s nothing absolute, isn''t it?" Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen. "Beichen, when I just came back, you clearly told me that I was different from these days... Did you continue to treat me coldly because I didn''t say it? Until..." she bit her lip, "until I was completely put in my memory?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep... He admitted that when Shen Chu just came back, he was still focused on her. Just, that kind of heart is what he thought I don''t know when he got used to a person''s existence. No matter her vanity or her hypocrisy... Even if she tries to please in bed and feels that she can take the money at ease! A man named Jian Mo has already filled his heart However, is he indifferent to Shen Chu? Hehe... Maybe, sometimes the truth is not suitable to know at all! "If so..." Gu Beichen looked at Shen Chu with deep eyes. "Then, you decided not to say it with hardship?" Chapter 185 Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen. What she had planned to let Jian Mo plagiarize came to light today, and then she said about leaving five years ago... But now, things have changed and the timing is wrong, but it''s obviously difficult to ride the tiger. Gu Beichen didn''t urge Shen Chu either. The light in her eyes just coagulated her faintly, waiting for her to speak It is said that the wild goose has no trace... What about the lost feelings? Shen Chu pursed his lips and lowered his eyes with a timely self mocking smile: "I don''t want to say five years ago... But if I have to say. It''s like everything I did five years ago is ridiculous." Gu Beichen still didn''t speak, but his hand holding the red wine glass shook gently. The scarlet liquor in it stayed on the glass wall and slowly fell into the bottom of the glass. There was no trace on the glass wall. "Beichen, I''m not sure..." Shen Chu pursed his lower lip, then raised his eyes and looked at Gu Beichen. "I''m not sure about your feelings. I''m even more uncertain about what I came back for this time?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gradually became deep and bottomless, but he still didn''t say anything. Since five years ago, when preparing to enter the Emperor Maybe... It can be traced back further! Uncle Gu doesn''t want to take the shares back from the emperor''s second year to the emperor''s second year. He is no longer the wanton man he used to be, but now he... His hands are stained with the coldness of the world. Shen Chu saw that Gu Beichen still didn''t speak, and he had no bottom in his heart. After five years, she really can''t understand this man... She will throb when he sees her again. She is unhappy and he will compromise. However, after more and more contact, he seemed to gradually pull away... The feeling was that he just wanted to prove from her that his heart had changed. After sipping the lipstick, Gu Beichen put down the glass and let the mellow liquor swallow with the indifference in his body. "You know that JK and Gu mohuai cooperated..." Shen Chu said this, and his eyes were completely guilty. "At that time, you were just going to be the emperor, and I didn''t know how to help you, so..." Gu Beichen dimmed his eyes, "I said, I can... But you don''t trust me?" "What did you want me to do?" Shen Chu suddenly looked up at Gu Beichen, "in that case, you have been forced into a desperate situation... How can I bear to face me when you face JK?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips slightly hooked an incomprehensible radian, "so now you can let me face you while purchasing JK?" "I won''t come back if I look at Beichen for a while," Gu said "If I knew you were married, if I knew you would do this to me now, I wouldn''t come back and humiliate myself," she said Shen Chu tried hard to bear it. His eyelashes fanned slightly. Suddenly, tears filled his eyes were squeezed out of his eyes Gu Beichen looked at her with a complicated expression. He just opened his thin lips and said, "do you know why I do this to you?" Shen Chu gently fanned his eyes and looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously "Do you really think I don''t know?" Gu Beichen said softly. A complex emotion gradually slipped through the depths of the ink pupil, with a fleeting trace of disappointment. "I just want to wait for you and see what I force you to do, and you won''t say it!" Shen Chu suddenly ''cluttered'' in her heart. She didn''t know what Gu Beichen called knowledge, but slightly bit her lip, "you''re trying to force me to tell you the truth of your departure, so you''re so cold to me these days, aren''t you?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer yes or no, but looked at the lucky look in Shen Chu''s eyes and laughed at himself, "if my business needs you to bear, how can I bear it in the future..." When Shen Chu heard this, he suddenly jumped into Gu Beichen''s arms, put his arms around his neck and said, "I knew you still love me, you love me..." Gu Beichen''s cold face is so indifferent, but his eyes are even colder, but Shen Chu can''t see it He put his hand around her shoulder and opened his mouth with thin lips: "now the emperor and JK have become white hot... No, how can you get a foothold in the Shen family?" The light voice shocked Shen Chu''s heart instantly, and the tears fell down, "Beichen, I will not be your burden, I will never be your burden..." Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually became dark and bottomless, just like an ancient well, full of ghosts leading to the darkness of hell. ¡­¡­ "Momo, we have decided to go to the hot spring Club..." Su Ke has come over with several brochures of the hot spring club. "Let''s see which one to go?" "Tut Tut, sister sun, are you a magician..." Xiang night fanned his eyes and said hoarsely because of a cold, "where did you get it?" Then he took the brochure and opened it. Jane Mo doesn''t matter. Anyway, it''s good for everyone to be happy. "I''m free, everyone will decide!" "Sister Mo, just the hot spring club in heal Resort..." Xiang said with bright eyes in the evening, "I heard that this is also the emperor''s industry?" Jian Mo looked at Xiang night and smiled, "you fight hard enough for Chen Shao... You know such a hot spring club!" "Yes... I call it always ready!" She raised her eyebrows in the evening, and then began to deceive everyone. It''s better to go here later. The environment is good and the consumption is high. On weekdays, everyone doesn''t have a chance to go... Now some bosses pay for it and go during working hours. However, in a few seconds, everyone passes the vote. Tang Haoyang''s listeners said they wanted to go to the hot spring club, but they didn''t ask Yu Ziyun for instructions. They also sent the company''s bus to send them there The architectural design department is the most popular department of the company on weekdays. This time, because Jane Mo has such good benefits, the eyes of other departments are full of envy. Even more, the people who looked at the design department were jealous. Finally, their eyes fell on Jian Mo, full of disdain under jealousy Sitting on the bus and looking at the passing street view outside, Jane Mo''s mind is completely the shadow of Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen stood in front of the French window of his office and looked outside. Emperor group is the tallest building in Los Angeles except for the TV Tower. Standing here, there is always a feeling of overlooking everything. I don''t know how long I watched it. When Gu Beichen and time seemed to be frozen, he only slightly restrained his eyes Drooping his eyes and collecting the disappointment from the bottom of his eyes, Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone. Subconsciously called out Jian Mo''s name. He looked at the name of "Mo''er" and half rang. He directly opened the SMS interface from the name. Mr. G: I''ll go back to Runze garden in the evening! Chapter 186 When Jian Mo received Gu Beichen''s text message, the car had just arrived at the hot spring club. Everyone went to go through the formalities first. She replied to the text message: she was stained with her husband''s light. Because the design showed up, our boss gave us a holiday, and we came out to soak up the soup! Gu Beichen frowned slightly: where is it? Jian Mo replied: your territory Gu Beichen didn''t reply to the text message again. In Los Angeles, there is a natural hot spring club in the heal resort, which belongs to the emperor. There is no other place except there. Jian Mo didn''t receive another text message from Gu Beichen, which is normal... Duoduo was a little lost, but she didn''t think much. After all, there have been too many such situations in the past two years. "Mo Mo, your ID card..." Sun Ke shouted at the right time. Jane Mo walked over and handed her ID card to the front desk. Today''s goal is to live here directly in the evening and go back to work directly in the morning. Although Xiangyu is not yet listed and is completely a "small company" in the eyes of the emperor, because Yu Ziyun is very generous to his employees, everyone is very happy to work here, but not many people are willing to change jobs. Although, sometimes I don''t have the ability to jump better People first opened a room, and then went to make soup and entertainment. In fact, there is a small soup pool attached to each room. It''s just that everyone feels that it''s more lively to have fun together. Looking for an opportunity in the evening, I saw Jane alone, hurried over, grinned and sat on the side with some embarrassment and hesitation. "Say what you want to say?" Jane Mo looked at her and said with a smile in her mouth, "I''ve been holding it all the way, and I''m not afraid of the aggravation of the cold virus?" Xiang night glanced, "sister mo..." she shouted coquettishly and asked in a low voice, "Why are the design drawings different? Although this is better, how can the emperor agree to change it?" Jian Mo supported the table with her arms and played with her smooth feet floating up and down in the water, "you said, this is better..." In a word, there is not much explanation. Xiang night''s brain circuit is a little simple. She explains more, but she is tangled. Sure enough Xiang night''s eyes lit up, then looked at Jian Mo with adoration on his face and said, "sister Mo''s design conquered the Emperor... Hey, I knew sister Mo was the best, and I took you as my goal!" Jane Mo looked at the little girl like this and couldn''t help laughing... It seemed that she was only two years older than Xiang night! After Xiang evening got the answer, he joined everyone''s playful line. After a while, Sun Ke came to Jian mo. "Has everything been dealt with?" Sun Ke asked vaguely. Jane Mo knew that everyone cared about her and didn''t hate to ask. She smiled and said, "I should..." "I heard from the director," Su Ke asked Tang Haoyang about the "plagiarism" of the design when he went to report that everyone wanted to come here at that time. "You have proved everything with your better design. Even if someone comes out to say something later, you have confidence to refute." Jane Mo''s heart is warm. Although she has signed such a long contract with Xiangyu, she is very happy to work with these people. ¡­¡­ Xiao Jing looks at the surrounding environment and stops at the roadside When the Cayenne stopped next to the tube building where the lower class people lived in Los Angeles, it seemed a little abrupt. Especially when Xiao Jing stood in front of the car in a suit and leather shoes, the momentum of that body attracted the attention of the people who came and went. When the mobile phone rang in time, Xiao Jing took it out and picked it up, "I''ve arrived." "Erjing, are you and Chen Shao really good at using us like this?" From the other end of the phone came dissatisfied, but the voice of the eldest sister was full of momentum. Xiao Jing smiled, "elder sister... Are you not satisfied with finding boss long or Chen Shao? Anyway, I''m not bad!" "..." the other side was obviously dissatisfied, but he didn''t say anything, just gave him the information Xiao Jing wanted. "Sister, I''ll invite you to dinner later." Xiao Jing finished laughing and hung up the phone. Xiao Jing walked into the tube shaped building and finally stood at the door of one of them... Looking at the mess at the door, he just had a deep look in his eyes. "Dong Dong!" "Who?" There was a lazy voice inside. Xiao Jing did not change his face, but said, "business!" There was no movement inside. After a while, he saw that the door inside was opened. A bearded man narrowed his eyes and looked at Xiao Jing through the iron fence door, "what are you doing?" "Find you to release some news!" Xiao Jing spoke calmly. As soon as the man heard that the business was coming, his eyes lit up, and then hurried to open the door, "please come in, please come in!" Xiao Jing didn''t say anything about his attitude, but calmly took a bag with one hand and went in... If it''s dirty outside, the house is a garbage dump. But fortunately, Xiao Jingtai didn''t seem surprised to understand the life in the tube shaped building. "What news are you going to release?" The man was a little embarrassed to see that there was no clean place around, "don''t worry, I can do your news here and release it by major online media at the same time. The price is different according to your requirements..." After a pause, the man grinned, "the most important thing is... Customers here don''t have to worry about information being leaked." "Oh?" Xiao Jing let out a light sigh and smiled in his mouth. He smiled, but the man''s heart was inexplicably ''cluttered'', and he felt a chill gradually spreading from the soles of his feet to his whole body, "yes, yes..." Xiao Jing''s smile deepened at the corners of his mouth. He only heard him say: "but... What should I do? I came here to want a piece of information!" "Ah?" Some men didn''t react. Xiao Jing looked at the man in surprise. His face remained unchanged. He just walked back and forth in the room and said, "the emperor has the rules of the emperor." he paused and looked back at the man. "Some things... Can''t be interfered by others, okay?" The man stared at Xiao Jing and said, "are you..." Xiao Jing chuckled, took out his business card and handed it over. "The club has invested so much human experience that our president doesn''t want to see any negative impact!" When the man looked at the words "special assistant to the president" written on the business card, he was scared back two steps. Others don''t know, but he''s the one who gets the wrong way. He knows very well... What was the previous identity of this special assistant around Gu Beichen? "I, I didn''t send it..." the man explained quickly. Xiao Jing smiled, "I know..." he smiled more and more evil, but his voice was cold and slowly said, "otherwise, you wouldn''t be talking to me here!" The man was so scared that he almost didn''t fall down. Xiao Jing restrained his smile. "I don''t want to see all the information... Even if there is relevant news in any media. Although it''s not necessarily you, I''ll find you first..." "I can only manage the Internet, but I can''t manage the paper and sound media?" The man said quickly. Xiao Jing gently hooked the lower lip corner, "you just need to manage the online media..." then, he took a deep look at the man, turned to the computer, inserted the USB flash disk, copied all the previously reserved things in the man''s computer and directly formatted his hard disk. The man looked hard, but he didn''t dare to pit. It''s better to let the person who has the ability to do things disappear than to let the person who has the ability to do things disappear. If we can use it for our own use, we will not lose a talent Sitting in the car, Xiao Jing looked at the USB flash disk on the dashboard and sighed... Is Shen Chu really the chenshao who didn''t have the city government before? An accident has long changed Chapter 187 What is the happiest thing in the world? It''s not that you can wake up naturally during the holiday, nor can you take a nap at work... It''s that you''re paid, but playing, or spending the money of the company! Xiangyu''s people are playing crazy, soaking in hot springs, visiting resorts and enjoying the green world when winter is coming "I''m so hungry..." Xiang night began to protest with his stomach in his arms. Mo Xiaoya stared, "it''s noisy when we get to the restaurant..." Suddenly, everyone laughed. Everyone sat down and was about to order when the lobby manager came over "Hello, everyone. I''m Belle, the manager of the resort." Belle said with a smile, "as tourists of the resort, tonight''s dinner will be provided free of charge by the resort!" Some of them couldn''t react. After stunned for a few seconds, led by Xiangwan and Dingdang, they immediately shouted excitedly... Some even joked and saved Yu Ziyun money for dinner. "If you don''t mind, will you allow me to match your dinner tonight?" Belle asked with a smile. Naturally, people won''t mind. After all, it''s free. Jane Mo frowned a little strangely and always felt strange... When she brought up the meal, she knew why it was strange! Because... The dishes on the table are usually what she likes to eat. What does that mean? It''s definitely not a coincidence "You eat first. I''ll go to the bathroom." Jane Mo said, got up and went to the bathroom. As she walked, she took out her mobile phone and wanted to send a text message to Gu Beichen. However, she finally called. "Huh?" A low, magnetic voice came from the other end of the phone. Jane Mo didn''t go to the bathroom. She just stood in the corridor and asked, "did you prepare dinner?" With expectation in her eyes, a smile filled her eyes. "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered, "are you satisfied with the dishes?" Jane Mo''s mouth cracked, "eh, I didn''t expect my husband to know what I like to eat?" Her words were full of ridicule. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and deliberately said, "Hey, isn''t someone eating everything and not picky about food?" "..." Jane Mo immediately turned her mouth, "dear husband, shouldn''t you say... Why doesn''t your husband know what his wife likes?" "Well, improve next time!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a smile. That smile instantly reached the bottom of his eyes, "have fun..." With a warm heart, Jane Mo hung up the phone, took a deep breath and turned back to the restaurant. Because we are all young people, after dinner, we are full of energy and resurrected again... They saved money for a meal and joked about spending it back in the evening, which distressed president Yu. Naturally, everyone knows that Yu Ziyun is not a little angry person, so they play recklessly. The facilities in the resort are complete. There are entertainment programs, bars and pastimes in the evening. As long as you have money, you can naturally enjoy noble enjoyment. It was already more than 11:00 p.m. when they left. If we didn''t consider getting up early and going back tomorrow, we would have to go crazy for a while "Xiangwan, remember to gather at the door at 6 a.m. tomorrow..." Jane Mo said to Xiangwan, and then dragged her tired body to her room. Taking the access control card and opening the door, Jane Mo walked in and was about to turn on the light... Suddenly, a force pulled her in and closed the door at the same time. An instinctive scream of "ah" blocked the exit, and the familiar kiss frenzy swept through. Jane Mo subconsciously pushed, but not only did she not push away, but she got a deeper kiss "Well..." Jane Mo suddenly felt a dull pain and annoyed. Gu Beichen got up with a bad smile at the corner of his mouth. Looking at Jian Mo, he raised his hand, touched his lips and stared at him. His smile could not help deepening. "Why did you bite me?" Said Jane angrily. Gu Beichen picked up his eyebrows, his eyes were deep and condensed with Jane Mo and said, "punish you for trying to push me away..." "I thought you were a coyote!" Jane Mo said angrily. Gu Beichen smiled, "well, since I''m a coyote, if I don''t do some Coyote behavior, I''m sorry for the title..." then, he has mercilessly pressed Jian Mo against the door... And started the exclusive behavior of coyote. Jane Mo felt something was wrong with Gu Beichen today, but she couldn''t say what was wrong? The war lasted two rounds incisively and vividly. Gu Beichen let go of Jian Mo''s weak body The kiss fell on Jane Mo''s neck, and with the heat spread on her skin, she was full of tenderness under ambiguity. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen shouted softly. Jane Mo has completely lost her strength. If Gu Beichen hadn''t hooped her waist and hooked his neck, I''m afraid she would have slipped down the door They have been standing and fighting for so long today "Huh?" Jane Mo said softly, and felt that Gu Beichen was wrong. The room didn''t turn on the light, except for each other''s breathing, everything was hazy... Such a feeling was treacherous. "Ah!" Jane Mo suddenly screamed because Gu Beichen bit her again! "Gu Beichen, are you a dog?" Jane Mo said angrily. Gu Beichen smiled, but in the dark, his eyes were deep and integrated with the darkness. "Make soup with me!" Gu Beichen suddenly said, taking advantage of the situation, he picked up Jian Mo and walked to the small hot spring pool outside the room. Jane Mo squirmed, "I soaked in the afternoon... I have to get up early tomorrow. I want to go to bed!" Gu Beichen took care of her, stripped off her clothes that were still hanging on her body, and then "threw" them into the small hot spring pool. Jian Mo sees that she is powerless to resist and can only accept... No way. She is the wife who listens to her husband''s words most in the new era! Warm water and warm embrace are bound to be another "wind, flower, snow and moon". Jane Mo doesn''t understand. Is there no end to men? I don''t know. Tired? Of course, Jane Mo doesn''t know the answer The first night she was drugged, she didn''t have much memory at all. Later, Gu Beichen... Naturally, he had no chance to prove anything. "What do you think?" Gu Beichen asked. How dare Jane Mo say that she is studying the ability of men? She just said with a smile: "I''m thinking that my husband will come here today... This is to excrete physical strength?" Gu Beichen immediately sank his face and thought: city a has chased thousands of kilometers Jane Mo lies on the table, Gu Beichen wraps her around her from behind and lies on her shoulder... Because he has a dark stubble of beard on his chin, she has a little support. The two stayed like this and didn''t speak. Only the sound of each other''s breathing and the rising water mist shrouded their eyes. Jane Mo had a momentary illusion that... She was in love, and Gu Beichen also had feelings for her. However, when she turned around, she found such an idea ridiculous and strangled it in the bud. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen suddenly said, "if I encounter a problem, will you choose to advance and retreat with me, or leave? Or..." he paused and asked, "will you use your way to make me perfect?" Chapter 188 Jane Mo gently fanned her eyelashes with water mist. She felt that Gu Beichen was wrong. I''m afraid she thought he had something on his mind. Is this worry... Related to this problem? Did he get an unsatisfactory answer from Shen Chu, so he was unhappy? The corners of Jane Mo''s mouth were slightly tickled with self mockery. Do women who love each other like to guess each other''s thoughts? With a faint sigh, Jane Mo answered from her heart, "I don''t know..." her voice was a little confused, "but I know I won''t leave." At least, when I''m still your wife... No matter what I do for you or advance and retreat with you, I won''t leave! Gu Beichen''s heart suddenly shook, and his eyes were instantly deep and bottomless. Jane Mo felt that what she said was too pretentious. Gu Beichen didn''t need her around. "Isn''t it foolish of me to give up such a big gold Lord?" She joked heartlessly, making people feel sincere or false. Gu Beichen''s mood suddenly stagnated, and then he bit Jian Mo on his shoulder Jian Mo just wanted to scream in pain, but Gu Beichen straightened her body, kissed her, and swallowed all the screams into his stomach So the action is done at one go, without any stagnation, and the fluency makes Jian Mo less than thinking at all. Two proud people lost themselves and saw themselves at this moment... But they didn''t see each other! At night, the moonlight is bright, with layers of halo, which is splashed in the ink space, setting off the whole night with blurred ambiguity. Jian Mo was tossed and exhausted by Gu Beichen and fell asleep in his arms. Gu Beichen hugged her and quickly entered the dream... There was only a faint light in the East. To get up early, Jane Mo set her mobile alarm clock at 5:20. The soft piano music broke the silence of the morning and echoed in the room. Jane Mo wriggled to get up. Unfortunately, she was physically overdrawn last night. After trying several times, she fell back into Gu Beichen''s arms. Gu Beichen woke up and couldn''t help laughing at Jian Mo''s lazy appearance He didn''t wake her up. After about ten minutes, Gu Beichen whispered in Jian Mo''s ear, "it''s six o''clock in twenty minutes?" Last night, er Jianmo kept shouting that he would gather back at six in the morning, but he didn''t want her... Looking at her tired look, Gu Beichen sighed secretly and wanted to let her sleep. However, thinking that the little girl would be angry when she woke up, she still called her. Jane Mo sat up, took her cell phone and looked at the time... It was only 20 minutes. She hurried out of bed and went to wash. She didn''t even turn on the bedroom light. After washing in a hurry, Jian Mo arranged Gu Beichen with words in her mouth, "it''s all you. If it weren''t for you, I wouldn''t be able to sleep or get up..." she said angrily while wearing clothes. Gu Beichen turned on the bedside lamp, looked at the shaking shadow of Jian Mo, smiled and said, "you should thank me... If it weren''t for me, you would still be asleep now!" "..." Jian Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, looked at Gu Beichen and said with a smile, "I thank you... Thank you for tossing. I can''t get up!" She tied the scarf, "I''m leaving, President Gu, help yourself!" Then she took her bag and hurried out It seems that I forgot to unload the clavicle chain on the TV cabinet before going to the hot spring yesterday! The sound of "click" came, and the house fell into silence. Gu Beichen smiled helplessly and shook his head. After washing, he put on his clothes and went out of the hotel to the parking lot. Xiangyu''s bus is still there, and two people haven''t arrived... One of them must be late. "Hey, look..." suddenly, Ding Dang shouted, "isn''t that Gu Beichen? He was here last night?" With the "brush", everyone looked in the direction of Dingdang''s fingers Gu Beichen took his pocket with one hand and walked to Maybach with steady steps. His every move was awe inspiring and domineering. He didn''t look like a bird in bed at all. Jian Mo pursed her mouth with guilty conscience and didn''t join the discussion. She just looked at Gu Beichen''s figure... Her eyes overflowed with unknown feelings. "God, he''s much more handsome than on TV and magazines?" "Really, so stylish, so imposing..." "Wake up, that''s it..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The women have been crazy one by one. While the men envy, envy and hate one by one, they hit a few women and were immediately attacked. Jane Mo glanced and whispered, "men are also a curse..." "Ah, Mo Mo, what are you talking about?" Mo Xiaoya is close to Jian mo. she looks at Gu Beichen and asks. Jane Mo smiled, "no, I didn''t say anything..." Mo Xiaoya didn''t care, but continued to discuss Gu Beichen with everyone until he opened the door, got into the car, drove the car and left with the roar of the arrogant engine When he got into the car with bleary eyes at night, Maybach left. When her audience saw Gu Beichen, they beat their chest and feet and wondered why they were sleepy. They all missed Gu Beichen in the morning. Because of Gu Beichen''s unexpected appearance, on the way back, everyone''s topic was entirely about him and the emperor group. Naturally, finally, Jian Mo had to be pushed out to the second goods in the evening to say a few gossip. "Eh, Mo Mo... Chen Shao can''t be... Huh?" Ding Dang has an ambiguous face. Jane Mo has been used to camouflage for the past two years and said calmly, "well, when I finished Chen Shao completely later... If you want to go through the back door, you must help!" As soon as everyone heard it, there was a car of joy Gu Beichen drove back to the mid level villa and changed clothes before going to the company. After entering the office, Susan came in with the documents to be processed After arranging today''s itinerary, Susan put a small box in front of Gu Beichen. "Belle asked someone to send this necklace and said it was seen in Miss Jane''s room..." Belle is a very capable woman. After Gu Beichen told her to arrange dinner and several necessary dishes yesterday, she guessed that Gu Beichen must have something to do with one of those people last night. So she simply sent the necklace to Susan... Whether the chain belongs to one of them or not. Gu Beichen took it and opened it. He saw it was a clavicle chain. There was some accident... Susan matched Jane Mo with a lot of jewelry, but he didn''t see her wear anything except for specific occasions. The slender finger took out the clavicle chain. Gu Beichen thought that Jian Mo liked this style better, so he couldn''t help looking deeply... Finally, his sight fell on the double m with strong artistic sense. "Do you match the past?" Gu Beichen asked. Susan looked at the clavicle chain and shook her head. "No..." Gu Beichen looked at Susan and frowned slightly. A woman who doesn''t like wearing these things and only likes "collection" will buy it by herself? He thought, the eagle''s eyes fell on the buckle... Impressively, "Lin''s" exclusive logo came into view. "Lin" is an exclusive customized high-end brand Gu Beichen''s eyes were suddenly dark and bottomless, and the ink pupil seemed calm, just like... The waves were already surging in the dark! Chapter 189 Jian Mo found that the clavicle chain given to her by Su Junli was lost. It was already the time to take a bath at night. She recalled it and thought it might have fallen on heal, so she called and asked. However, the other party said that he didn''t pay attention when cleaning up the house. He would check it again and reply to her tomorrow. Jane Mo didn''t think much. After all, it''s normal for small things to fall into the gap inadvertently when cleaning... Besides, waiters in places like Heal are specially trained and can''t leave guests'' things without permission. The person who received the call knew about the necklace. The person who cleaned the guest room turned it in to the front desk. Belle, the manager, happened to be there, so he sent it directly to the group and handed it to the president''s secretary. As for why... We all know very well, don''t ask what you shouldn''t ask, and don''t be curious. Now the guests come to ask, they can only settle down first, and then report to belle to know After listening to the report, Belle called Susan and told her about Jane Mo''s call. "What''s the matter?" Seeing Susan''s puzzled look on her face, Xiao Jing couldn''t help asking. Susan told Xiao Jing about the necklace. Xiao Jing''s first reaction was surprise and then laughed. "Miss Yu, when did you buy the necklace for Jane..." I''m sure Miss Xiao bought it for you... " She didn''t buy the necklace. Susan knew very well, "Chen has been busy all day. It''s just a necklace... Maybe she forgot? It can''t be said that it must be sent by another man?" Xiao Jing shrugged. "Anyway, I think it''s from another man... Why don''t we make a bet?" "I won''t bet with people who have been wandering in casinos since I was a child!" Susan shook her head and looked at the closed office door. "You stay and wait for Chen Shao. I''ll go first." "Why?" Xiao Jing asked subconsciously. Susan curled her lips and smiled, "date..." "..." Xiao Jing stared wide and felt surprised. Susan patted Xiao Jing on the shoulder and said, "sister, my market has been popular recently. Peach blossoms are very popular... Chen Shao asked, and you said I had something to go first." "Why?" Xiao Jing asked again. Susan rolled her eyes. "I''m afraid Chen can''t see others in pairs..." Xiao Jing laughed and praised Susan. In such a big office, the breath is a little condensed. On the video recorder, several directors of the European branch were afraid to breathe one by one, waiting for Gu Beichen''s instructions "How much did you lose?" Gu Beichen asked faintly in English for a long time, which made people unable to hear the emotion under his voice. "More than 200 million..." replied ferry, CEO of the European branch. Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently raised a wanton radian, which showed a trace of cold. Ferri swallowed it secretly. Gu Beichen took over the emperor and queen and was brought up... There is an old Chinese saying that "once the son of heaven, one courtier" is probably his case. However, now that the forces of all parties are surging, he is to blame for making such a big mistake in the company''s project. Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and collected his dark eyes at the bottom of his eyes Second uncle is unwilling to be lonely... A bridge between Donghai city and Nanhai city is just testing the water, and Europe is his main battlefield! Thin lips were filled with coldness. Gu Beichen raised his eyes and said, "I''ll investigate your responsibility." after a pause, his ink pupil said indifferently, "at present, I want a solution." Obviously, I had expected, "it has been sent to your mailbox." Gu Beichen turned his head to open the mailbox, first looked at the plan sent by the laborious, and then said, "implement it first. I''ll let Xiao Jing inform you of the specific situation." "Yes!" Ferri answered. Gu Beichen calmly cut off the video conference, and his deep eyes fell on the computer screen again. Looking at the prediction scheme, he gradually narrowed his eagle eyes The time is quiet, and even the sound of breathing is much lighter. After reading all the plans, Gu Beichen revised the key points before calling Xiao Jing in, "I sent you a business plan in your email, listed the key points of the plan and copied it to Fei Li." Xiao Jing answered, "Chen Shao, do you want to take you back first..." "No." Gu Beichen spoke faintly, then got up, put on his suit and coat, and wanted to leave. However, the talent came to the door. When Xiao Jingzheng wanted to follow him out, he suddenly stopped Xiao Jing almost didn''t collide with Gu Beichen because of his inertia. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes glanced sideways at Xiao Jing. He grinned and was sad. He saw Gu Beichen turn back to his desk, take a small box and go away. Xiao Jing''s eyes suddenly brightened, "by the way, Chen Shao..." Gu Beichen glanced at him and didn''t speak. Xiao Jing said: "Susan just said that there was a phone call from heal saying that Miss Jane was looking for a necklace." With a brush, Gu Beichen''s fierce eyes shot at Xiao Jing. Xiao Jing secretly grinned and couldn''t stop... What''s more, he was secretly disgusted: it''s not him looking for it. Chen Shao''s eyes are the same as his heinous crimes? Make it clear that the necklace was given to Miss Jane by another man... But I don''t know which man it is? Gu Beichen went to the parking lot with a cold face, opened Bentley mousshang and left the Emperor Group When the car stopped at the underground of runzeyuan, Gu Beichen was surprised to find that he had become subconscious now. With a self mocking smile, Gu Beichen looked at the box on the workbench. Gu Beichen knew it well, threw the box into the toolbox, and then got out of the car and went upstairs. Jane Mo just came out of the kitchen with instant noodles. After returning to the company from heal today, she came back with several lists because of the design of the emperor Club... She didn''t eat after drawing the design drawings. She was a little hungry at the moment. The tempting aroma of instant noodles made Jian Mo couldn''t help eating in front of the tea table. She simply picked up noodles while walking However, the face was just stuffed into his mouth, and his line of sight was right. Gu Beichen''s deep and strange eyes. "HMM... cough... Cough..." Jane Mo wanted to speak, forgetting that the noodles were still in her mouth. She was choked by the instant noodles and coughed sadly. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and walked forward. He took the instant noodles in Jian Mo''s hand and put it aside. Then he said coldly, "I have a bad stomach and eat these junk food..." Jane Mo coughed so much that tears came out. If she wanted to refute, she couldn''t say anything because her throat was so stinging at the moment. Gu Beichen looked at her and snorted coldly, "deserve it!" Words fall, his big palm has already posted Jian Mo''s back, and began to give her gas. Finally, Jane Morse''s uncomfortable strength went down and said, "how did you come back?" "I heard... Someone lost his necklace?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer the question. Jian Mo''s heart "cluttered" and howled for a while... Do you want to report such a big thing to the president of the group? "How do you know?" Jane Mo pretended to ask. "The president specially explained that someone in the group to take care of has lost something. What do you think?" Gu Beichen asked. Jian Mo grinned secretly for fear that Gu Beichen knew that the necklace was given by Su Junli and deliberately asked, "so... Did you find the necklace?" Gu Beichen looked deeply at Jian Mo''s expression and snorted coldly. He leaned forward and stood in her ear Feeling the slight tension of Jian Mo, Gu Beichen''s eyes became colder and colder. "What are you looking for? I''ll buy you what I like..." he raised his eyebrows. "I heard... Lin''s private customization is good. Why don''t I give you one?" Chapter 190 Jane Mo didn''t understand the meaning of Gu Beichen''s words. She frowned slightly, then hooked Gu Beichen''s neck, smiled and said, "OK... Does the husband want to design it himself?" When Jian Mo asked this, she regretted it. Gu Beichen designed lanzeyuan house for Shen Chu, and she struggled to design something... Is this really good? Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, filled with anger, "do you want me to design it myself?" "Yes..." Jian Mo was a little fluffy when Gu Beichen looked at her. "Of course, if her husband won''t, I won''t mind!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips sneered coldly, pulled away Jian Mo''s arm and said coldly, "Jian Mo, when can you seriously ask me for something?" The words fell, and his eyes glanced deeply at Jane mo. Jian Mo secretly gritted her teeth and pressed down the emotion burst out in her heart. She just said with a flattering smile, "if you don''t let me eat instant noodles, I''m hungry... Can you buy me something to eat?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and couldn''t help himself. He snorted coldly, turned and left again What''s he doing back here? Obviously, I''m busy and have something to deal with, but I just come back to find myself angry. Gu Beichen, you didn''t care before... How can you see your heart now? Jane Mo is heartless Gu Beichen started the car and left Runze garden. He thought he was going back to the mid level villa, but finally stopped in front of a nightclub. If a person is cheap, Gu Beichen thinks it''s him With anger, Gu Beichen got out of the car, went to a small nightclub, bought nightmares, and then went back to Runze garden. Jian Mo didn''t expect Gu Beichen to really buy supper. When he saw that he put supper on the tea table with a cold face, he glanced sideways. Because the design drawing covered the whole dining table, he snorted coldly, "do you want to directly change the dining table into a design table for you?" Jane Mo estimated that Gu Beichen was angry about the necklace, but fortunately, he didn''t know who sent it... It''s estimated that he just didn''t think it was matched by Susan. In order not to arouse doubts and unnecessary misunderstandings, Jane Mo smiled and said, "of course... But will the bowl be embarrassed when you eat back because it tilts?" "..." Gu Beichen was speechless by Jian Mo''s words. Is this woman born with the ability to please him and annoy him at the same time? Jianmo opens the night snack with hot and sour noodles, steamed stuffed buns and porridge... But everything is double. "Well, you didn''t eat either?" Jane Mo was a little surprised. After all, it''s already past 10 p.m. Gu Beichen snorted coldly and didn''t speak. He just took a box of noodles and began to eat. Looking at Gu Beichen''s proud appearance, Jane Mo skimmed her mouth, "I want to eat noodles..." "I bought it for me, just one!" "I want noodles!" Jane Mo reiterated. Gu Beichen glanced sideways at her and ignored her directly Jane Mo made up her mind, took the chopsticks, skimmed her mouth, directly leaned over and went to get the noodles, then put it into her mouth and sucked it... She bit it off from the middle without image, and the rest fell back into the bowl. "Disgusting!" Gu Beichen frowned. Jane Mo stared and said, "why don''t you feel sick when you kiss me?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep. "Who knows? Maybe I didn''t find it before..." he said, and suddenly his eyes were deep, "well, I''ll try again..." "Huh?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously. Gu Beichen''s mouth was slightly hooked. His big palm had caught the back of Jian Mo''s head and his lips attacked him Jane Mo only felt that her mouth rolled for a while, and then half of the face that had just slipped in was swept away... She widened her eyes and didn''t expect Gu Beichen to do such an ambiguous action. "Well, it''s disgusting... It''s just my wife, so I can''t give up." Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows and deliberately said. Jane Mo''s face has been crimson. Such intimate behavior is even more embarrassing than their embracing each other in bed After sipping her lips, Jane Mo only felt that the noodles left in her mouth still had the smell of Gu Beichen. That feeling was very strange. That is, it should be a "disgusting" move, but it makes her heart beat faster... She can''t control it. Looking at Jian Mo''s pretty appearance, Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep. When did this woman start... Showing such a little woman''s coyness, made him more and more fascinated by it? ¡­¡­ Blues. Chu Zixiao took a bottle of wine out of the wine cellar. Tang Yu looked at it and couldn''t help laughing, "I didn''t expect you to hide good goods here..." "Beichen." Chu Zixiao spoke faintly. Tang Yu shrugged and poured each other a cup, "I heard... Gu Beichen doesn''t intend to help Chu?" Yes, yes. It''s not as good as the emperor of Chu. If the emperor of Chu doesn''t swallow his appearance this time, it''s not as big as the emperor of Chu. "He''s ambitious," Chu Zixiao said calmly. "I''m not interested in shopping malls..." "Not interested. You hold five percent of the emperor''s shares?" Tang Yu asked. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were dark and didn''t speak. "By the way," Tang Yu asked with an eyebrow, "have you found out about the Yujing lake?" "Not sure yet..." Chu Zixiao said faintly. Whether it''s dad or Beichen, it seems that everyone has something to hide, and it seems that no one is the root of the problem. But if not, what was the cause of what happened two years ago? Uncle Jane died unexpectedly. Isn''t it because of something inside? Thinking of this, Chu Zixiao suddenly resisted Whether it''s dad or Beichen, if it''s related to the things at Yujing Lake... Chu Zixiao suddenly didn''t dare to think about it. Tang Yu looked at his tangled appearance and of course opened his mouth: "in fact, have you ever thought about letting him go since it was in the past... Dig it out and hurt others and yourself." Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but gently raised his eyes and looked at Tang Yu. "By the way," Tang Yu put down his glass, "I heard my uncle say something today... There seems to be something wrong with Jane Mo''s design!" "Huh?" Chu Zixiao frowned. "The design of the imperial club was changed, and the previous one was removed..." Tang Yu said, "he asked me to help inquire about a magazine that has been suspended." Chu Zixiao doesn''t understand "Because Jane may be suspected of plagiarism!" "Absolutely not..." Chu Zixiao frowned and immediately rejected, "you can tell me that anyone plagiarizes, but Mo Mo won''t." "Personal emotional support?" Tang Yu asked. Chu Zixiao looked at Tang Yu with deep eyes, "it''s the trust in her personality..." Tang Yu smiled and then said, "my friend told me a very interesting thing today..." "What?" Tang Yu raised his eyebrow, "Jian Mo suddenly changed the design, which outsiders don''t know. However, those who participated in the comparison at the beginning all know... But no one has questioned these two days, right?" Chapter 191 Chu Zixiao looked at Tang Yu with deep eyes, waiting for him to continue "What does that mean?" Tang Yu picked his eyebrows like asking a case, and his mouth was filled with a evil smile. Chu Zixiao''s sight became more and more deep, and there was a complex emotion on Junyan... No one knew what it was for better than him. There is only one reason why so many companies do not make any statements at the same time... The emperor opened his voice to prohibit the outflow of all the contents of the comparison meeting. It''s not easy for people to participate in the emperor. No one is willing to ruin the future of themselves and the company for a gossip... Because it''s undoubtedly hitting the stone with an egg. Chu Zixiao leaned slowly on the sofa and narrowed his sight slightly. He was particularly distant under the glass lamp Is Beichen in love with Mo Mo? This cognition made Chu Zixiao''s heart uneasy and flustered. That time, Mo Mo told him that she fell in love with Beichen. Although he was sad, he didn''t worry. Because Shen Chu is back, sooner or later Beichen and Momo will divorce. But now it seems that this is not the case Obviously, Beichen''s mind is not on Shen Chu, but on Mo mo. "Xiao," Tang Yu said slightly, "in fact, Jian Mo''s identity is no longer suitable to be with you... My aunt won''t agree." Chu Zixiao didn''t speak. His feelings never need the consent of others... It is his lover, not others, who has lived with him all his life! Tang Yu sighed secretly. Seeing Chu Zixiao''s persistence, I don''t know how to persuade him Saying this, he just wants ah Xiao to see clearly that Gu Beichen may have fallen in love with Jian mo. If so, say an ugly... In Los Angeles, who can rob a woman with the emperor''s Chen Shao? The night wind makes the world whine, just like ghosts haunting. After eating, Jian Mo and Gu Beichen continued to draw design drawings, and the other went to the study to process documents. The wind blew strangely at night, as if the weather in Los Angeles was about to change... This day, not only the weather, but also the economic turmoil! The news in the early morning of the next day was occupied by JK. The emperor once again took advantage of the victory to win more than 50% of the shares of JK subsidiary in Donghai City, and officially entered the main subsidiary with the absolute advantage of holding shares. It seems that such changes represent that the time for JK''s Dynasty to rewrite is getting shorter and shorter. With a slap, the crisp slap fell on Shen Chu''s face with ice cold. Shen Chu''s face was beaten to one side by Shen Hangzhi. She didn''t feel pain, but felt ridiculous. Slowly straightened his face, Shen Chu looked at Shen Hangzhi and said, "I said when I came back at the weekend that Beichen went to the East China Sea not only because of the bridge... Do you pay attention to it?" Shen Hangzhi looked at Shen Chu with anger in his eyes. "What I say, you never listen..." Shen Chu thought it ridiculous. "The more Shen Tianyue said, you think it makes sense. Now... You have lost the autonomy of your subsidiary..." Shen Hangzhi immediately raised his hand again Shen Chu didn''t hide, but looked at Shen Hangzhi with gloomy eyes, "fight, anyway... I don''t care." This slap didn''t fall after all. Shen Hangzhi clenched his hand and said coldly, "Shen Chu, as long as you handle this crisis, JK will give it to you!" "If you want me to handle it... Give me JK first!" Shen Chu''s eyes were dark and talked about the conditions, "otherwise, if there is another situation in the East China Sea, will dad still slap me?" The sneering voice is not like a conversation between father and daughter... She has only her mother. And this father is only after she was five years old Shen family... Hehe, if you want anything, you have to fight for it by yourself. She has known this truth since childhood. No woman in the circle is more beautiful than her. She knows where her advantages are and what she wants to exchange! The sky outside was overcast, as if it were going to be pressed down. The howling cold wind and the sudden attack of cold air made the whole city of Los Angeles depressed. Jane Mo arched in Gu Beichen''s arms like insects. Although the heating was turned on, she still felt comfortable in the quilt. "Good morning, husband..." Jane Mo said with a grunt. "Good morning!" Gu Beichen answered. He put his arm around Jian Mo and looked at the email sent by Xiao Jing with his mobile phone in one hand. The problem of European company is just the place where the second uncle wants to break down his attention... But how can he not guard against people who hide their power and bide their time? "Don''t want to get up..." Jane Mo snorted. Gu Beichen put down his mobile phone, turned over and pressed Jian Mo down, "just right, I don''t want to..." his kiss had fallen on Jian Mo''s face. Jian Mo pushed him angrily, "I''ll talk about going to work..." Gu Beichen smiled, "well, I just had a mouth addiction... What do you think it is?" Jane Mo knew she had been fooled again and was in a bad mood. After washing, Jian Mo went to make a simple breakfast. When Gu Beichen washed out, they had breakfast together and left one after another... One went to the parking lot and the other walked directly from the first floor to the company. As soon as we arrive at the company, everyone is gossiping about today''s news. No doubt, men always talk about business war and women always talk about gossip. "Oh, the latest news..." Xiang night raised his mobile phone and gathered into the crowd. "Someone broke the news that JK''s daughter was Chen Shao''s lover before? Just don''t know why, Shen Chu suddenly went abroad five years ago and only came back recently... Here, the former gossip mistress by the River in Los Angeles!" "Tut Tut, this is because love begets hate, so do you want to rob JK and heal the wound?" Ding Dang shook his head and said, "if I can''t get your people, I''ll get your company. In this way... You''re mine, too, ha ha!" Mo Xiaoya looked at Dingdang contemptuously, "superficial!" "My name is to develop according to the plot... Isn''t this how all current heart abusing dog blood TV plays?" Ding Dang said with a sad face, "however, I''m still very curious. What does Gu Beichen think of his wife?" "The media has helped me see..." Xiangwan shook his mobile phone and said, "this wife is more and more mysterious. Everyone is digging, but no one can dig it out... Alas, I always doubt that there is really no such person!" "Didn''t brother Rong say yes last time?" Ding Dang questions. Xiang Wan shrugged, "who knows..." she looked down at her mobile phone and said, "just, I don''t understand. If Shen Chu is really Gu Beichen''s old lover, why hasn''t Gu Beichen and his wife divorced yet?" "Your women are really different from our concerns!" Qiao Zirong came over at the right time and said, "what we really want to know is if Shen Chu comes forward... Will Gu Beichen stop buying JK because of Shen Chu?" "Probably not..." Da Xiong joined the discussion. "Doesn''t it mean that Gu mohuai is coming back to attend the emperor''s anniversary? The Regent is coming back, and Gu Beichen should only speed up his pace at this time?" Speaking of this, several women said they were unable to discuss "Sister Mo, sister mo..." take a step to the night and run to the side of Jian Mo''s work grid, "do you think Gu Beichen will give up the acquisition because of Shen Chu?" "Why did you ask me?" Jane Mo resisted the topic they were discussing today. Xiang night fanned his eyes and said jokingly, "because you are Chen''s youngest wife?" Excuse me, my wife, "what''s wrong with you?" Chapter 192 Han Zhenzhen accompanied his friend to Xiangyu to do decoration design for his family''s house. When they came to the door of the design department, they just heard the joke of Xiang night. They couldn''t help but stop at the same time and look at each other. They were a little surprised. Because they were still joking, they didn''t see the two people standing at the door. Jane Mo cleared her throat, then said with a serious and innocent face: "Alas, as Chen Shao''s wife, I have to listen to Chen Shao''s gossip from your mouth every day..." "Yes, yes, Mo Mo, your wife is too incompetent!" Ding Dang also said jokingly. Jane Mo nodded with a teachable face, "I should review..." then, she looked more seriously at Xiang night and said, "my husband and first love say this, which means I''m very upset. Because there''s no big house, no famous cars, and no luxury goods... Ah, my life is bleak and dull!" When they saw Jane''s pompous performance, they immediately smiled and turned their horses upside down. "Sister Mo, it''s all right. You can go to the night market with me later... Hahaha..." Xiang night has been unable to help laughing. Watching everyone laughing happily, Jane Mo slipped a touch of complex emotions at the bottom of her eyes, including sadness, self mockery, helplessness, sadness... There is also the sweetness of greed for this emotion that is going to die at any time. "Excuse me, can I help you?" Sun Ke came back from the tea room and looked at Han Zhenzhen and her friends with a professional smile. At the right time, all the playful people were surprised that someone was coming. One by one, they looked at each other with a smile, and their beautiful mood dispersed with gossip. "Hello, I have a villa in the South downtown area that I want to design..." Han Zhenzhen''s friend said, "can you appoint a designer?" "Yes." Sun Ke said, "however, it depends on your time and the designer''s time." "I''m looking for Jane mo." Sun Ke looked back at Jian Mo and saw that she was looking at Han Zhenzhen and didn''t care, "Jian Mo has a lot of designs in his hand recently. It''s estimated that..." "It doesn''t matter. I can wait." "Well, I''ll ask the designer..." Sun Ke went to Jian Mo, and Jian Mo took back his eyes looking at Han Zhenzhen. "No answer." Jane Mo spoke faintly, not because of Han Zhenzhen, but because she has too much work in her hand now. She still has her mother to take care of. Sun Ke has thought of it. He pushed it a lot yesterday. Nodding, Sun Ke clearly walked towards Han Zhenzhen and explained the situation. Although her friend felt sorry, she also liked Mo Xiaoya''s design and finally decided on Mo Xiaoya. Han Zhenzhen walks to Jian Mo, "do you have time? Have dinner later?" "You see..." Jane Mo motioned to the table, "I''m really busy." Han Zhenzhen smiled. "I''m sorry about the last time. Let''s have lunch... It''s around your company." Seeing that Jane was about to speak, she stopped and said, "do you have to eat?" Jane Mo sighed and generously agreed. In the morning, JK was plagued by the news media. JK is also a large old brand enterprise in Los Angeles. After the sudden internal problems this year, the emperor took advantage of it and surprised everyone. If the emperor succeeds in acquiring JK, then the emperor will not only become the sole occupation of Los Angeles, but also the whole country, the whole Asia... The ranking of the whole world will soar. Finance and economics talk about economy and gossip about Shen Chu... But no matter which one, it has become something people talk about entertainment and expect. Jane Mo stayed in the design room and poured a glass of water after drawing a picture. She usually doesn''t pay much attention to gossip, and the basic source is them. But now, she''s watching the news After reading it for a while, Jane Mo couldn''t help laughing at the comment. Because Lu man, who hasn''t had an affair with Gu Beichen for several days, is accused of looking similar to Shen Chu, so Gu Beichen is more special to her. Immediately, fans began to scold the water battle, and the comment area was full of joy. It''s just that her wife was also shot lying down... She pulled out from time to time. In due time, the phone rang. Jane Mo looked at the landline and picked it up, "hello?" "Miss Jane, this is heal Resort..." a soft and sweet voice came from the phone. "Because of the mistake of our staff, we couldn''t find your necklace in time, resulting in the loss... We are deeply sorry." Jane Mo immediately frowned "Excuse me, do you have time to come to us, or do we send someone to talk with you about compensation?" Jane Mo was a little depressed, not only because it was an unexpected gift, but also because she liked the necklace However, now it''s lost. Even compensation is useless. "Forget it first. If you can find it, please let me know." Jane Mo doesn''t want to be difficult. The human feelings in recent years have made her understand that if she can forgive, she can forgive. At noon, Jane and Han Zhenzhen had dinner near the office building. They used to be love enemies, but now they have the hatred of "intentional homicide", so they can''t be called friends. "Are you Gu Beichen''s wife?" As Han Zhenzhen spoke, his eyes showed the sharp eyes that a lawyer should have. Jane Mo pretended for two years. Naturally, she wouldn''t show too much because of her sudden question. "How do you want me to answer?" She smiled with a hint of ponder. "Of course, if you think so, I can''t intervene. It''s up to you." Han Zhenzhen frowned slightly, "once, I saw an affair between you and Gu Beichen in Nanxiang building..." Jane Mo''s heart ''cluttered'', but there was nothing on the surface, "don''t you know? I have an affair with his special help!" Han Zhenzhen frowned again. She also read the news report "That''s why you invited me to dinner today?" Jane Mo was a little embarrassed. "You won''t tell me that you like Gu Beichen now, so I''ve become your imaginary enemy again?" "Who wants to change like you?" Han Zhenzhen said coldly. Jane Mo looked disapproved. "It seems... It has nothing to do with you." Han Zhenzhen gets angry when she looks at Jian mo. when she was at school, she liked Chu Zixiao. She would only be killed by Jian Mordo. Don''t say waiting for two or three years, even ten years... She wouldn''t leave Zixiao. But what about Jane Mo? Chu Zixiao just left for half a year and broke up with him Jian Mo took a sip of coffee. "Instead of focusing on my life, it''s better to live your own life... Han Zhenzhen, how can you know that others don''t envy you when you are jealous of others?" She put down her coffee cup and looked at Han Zhenzhen. "Chu Zixiao and I, Gu Beichen you think, and even Xiao Jing... Of course, there are now legends and Su Junli... But anyway, that''s my life, not yours." Han Zhenzhen suddenly looks at Jian Mo suspiciously "People, don''t always look at others, you will lose yourself." Jian Mo said to Han Zhenzhen and himself, "I don''t think we have any appetite when we face each other for lunch. Let''s go first." Then Jane Mo took out her wallet, took out the money for her coffee, pressed it on the table, got up and left calmly Standing outside the western restaurant, the gloomy weather is chilly. Jane Mo took out her mobile phone, thought about it, and sent Gu Beichen a text message: is her husband going to dominate all the headlines today? Chapter 193 Gu Beichen is having a meeting. JK''s story was reported today, which shows that everything will become white hot. Busy, crazy busy... Has become the emperor and everyone in JK. Not only the employees, but also the executives... Their respective lawyers and presidents are all in an unprecedented busy situation. Gu Beichen had a meeting with Mo Shaochen and the relevant personnel of the acquisition case. When the mobile phone rang, he had no time to read the text message. Finally, he was so busy that he completely forgot The group is so busy that everyone''s pace has accelerated a lot Next, for the emperor and JK, it is a hard battle day and night. Winning or losing will also mark that emperor and JK rewrite history at the same time... Gu Beichen, no loss is allowed! He won''t lose! "I heard Xiaochu came to talk to you?" Mo Shaochen asked after receiving the coffee from Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face had no half expression, "HMM." "Beichen," Mo Shaochen frowned, "what do you think in your heart?" Gu Beichen hung his eyes and stirred the coffee. Between his eyebrows and eyes, people couldn''t see what he was thinking. "After JK''s affairs, I''ll talk with xiaochu''er about them..." Gu Beichen said, looking up at Mo Shaochen, "I can''t go back..." "Because she lied to you?" Asked Mo Shaochen. Gu Beichen smiled and shook his head. "I can understand her position, just as I have done the same thing as her to some extent." After a pause, he continued, "because I don''t love... Maybe I''ve never loved. Just at that time, she appeared and accompanied me through the wanton past." Gu Beichen''s calmness made Mo Shaochen frown slightly. He thought it was because Xiaochu cheated him, but now "In fact, you are at a loss now, aren''t you?" Gu Beichen asked faintly. Mo Shaochen didn''t speak, but looked out of the window The night is very deep, and the lights can''t be seen now. Because of the gloomy weather, there is no star light in the dark sky, which seems to highlight that Los Angeles will spend the next few days in such gloom Gu Beichen is a little tired and lies back in his seat. He takes out his mobile phone and cuts open the screen. There are some text messages on it that he hasn''t seen When he opened it, there were some from his parents, some from Shen Chu, and one from Jian mo. Gu Beichen looked at the time when Jian Mo sent it, frowned slightly and opened the text message first... Looking at the above indifferent teasing words, the expectation in his eyes suddenly became the same as the chilly weather outside. Angrily, Gu Beichen pressed down the short breath. Gu Beichen felt a little childish... Well, it''s childish. I want to open it again and reply to her, but... Considering that it''s too late, I''d better forget it. His parents'' text message told him that they had changed places again, and Shen Chu''s... Were several reminders to him to pay attention to his body when eating, not mentioning anything between JK and the emperor. Sometimes, people can''t avoid suspicion too much For several days, things between emperor and JK were in full swing, and the media dug out the past between Gu Beichen and Shen Chu Once, what Gu Beichen did for Shen Chu and what Shen Chu did for Gu Beichen seemed to be dumped overnight. Even... A media revealed that Shen Chu left five years ago to help Gu Beichen return to the emperor. If so, the media and the public speculate whether Gu Beichen will eventually give up the acquisition of JK for Shen Chu However, just as everyone was watching the speculation of the news, Gu Beichen had already sat on the flight to the United States because of an accident The dark sky was covered with dark clouds, as if it were about to collapse. Just as the genius of Los Angeles had just dawned and Gu Beichen had just finished handling things in the United States, when he hurriedly boarded the plane back to Los Angeles, snow began to float in the sky This winter, also because of the cold air, arrived ahead of schedule. "Drop, drop, drop..." A heavy voice came from the regular rhythm instrument. Jane Mo lay down beside Sumer''s bed and fell asleep exhausted... But her sleeping face was a little unstable. "Mom... Mom... Don''t leave me..." Jane Mo was talking nonsense, her body trembled slightly, and even her closed eyelashes were trembling, "no, no..." "Mom?" Jane Mo screamed and sat up suddenly. She breathed and swallowed hard, and finally her eyes fell on Sumer... Seeing that she was still lying here safely, Jane Mo swallowed involuntarily, but she couldn''t suppress her inner panic. A nurse hurried in because of Jian Mo''s scream. Seeing that everything hasn''t had much problem for the time being, she looked at Jian Mo sympathetically and moved her lips, but she didn''t know how to comfort her. Sumer''s current situation is sooner or later, but it''s too cruel for a Jane Mo who has been waiting for two years. "Alas..." the nurse sighed and quietly left the ward. Just at the moment of closing the door, she looked at Jane Morse sympathetically. "How are you?" There was a sound. The nurse was surprised to see that it was Dr. Wang. "Dr. Wang, are you here so early?" "Don''t worry, I came here earlier..." The nurse looked back at the closed door of the ward and shook her head with a heavy face. "Dr. Wang, didn''t you say that there was a heart source last time?" Dr. Wang''s face was extremely heavy. Jian Mo''s husband opened a medical account with the special help of her husband and actively looked for the source of the heart... Indeed, she found it and waited for the right time to prepare for the operation. Unfortunately Sumer''s current situation, even if he had a heart change, was futile! Because of Sumer''s special condition, her kidneys began to deteriorate sharply, which could not be controlled by drugs and manpower. In fact, it''s not pleasant to say that Sumer now... Is waiting to die! From the previous night to last night alone, Sumer was sent to the emergency room three times... And the next times will only become more and more frequent. If it weren''t for the persistence of that account and Jian Mo, he wouldn''t choose to drag it one day at a time... It''s not easy for Jian Mo in the past two years. Dr. Wang went back to the office and wanted to call Xiao Jing to talk about the current situation... But the mobile phone was turned off. The roaring aircraft engine echoed in the sky, and Xiao Jing and Gu Beichen were still dealing with JK "Chen Shao, no accident. JK will be finished in two days at most." Xiao Jing said excitedly, but his face was hard to hide his fatigue. If you don''t sleep for four hours a day for a week, the iron man will melt Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly. Even though he was tired, he didn''t seem to show too much. He thinks Jane mo Drooping his eyes, Gu Beichen couldn''t hide his smile. Suddenly he glanced at Xiao Jing, "do you think there is a problem with the beginning of Jane Mo and me?" He sipped his thin lips, put his arms on the armrest and held his cheeks on the back of his hands, "it seems too profitable at the beginning..." Chapter 194 Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen and twitched uncontrollably at the corners of his mouth. Then he asked mindlessly, "Chen Shao, how are you this year?" Gu Beichen frowned, but subconsciously said, "twenty-eight..." Xiao Jing gave a fake smile at the corner of his mouth, "Chen Shao, I thought you were only eighteen this year?" "What do you mean?" Gu Beichen stared at Xiao Jing. Xiao Jing looked innocent. "Youth..." he said in a strange voice and tone. "You just tangled like the emperor president who won more than hundreds of millions of dollars in projects in the United States at that time?" "..." Gu Beichen was so cold and gloomy that he was ridiculed by his special help. According to Jian Mo''s words... Is he drunk? Gu Beichen sat upright, took JK''s documents and continued to read them. He felt that talking about love with Xiao Jing, who had never been in love and was estimated to be a little virgin, was his strategic failure. Seeing Gu Beichen somewhat depressed, Xiao Jing grinned and flattered and said, "Chen Shao, if you really plan to go down with Miss Jane, I have a suggestion..." Gu Beichen ignored Xiao Jing and simply turned away this time. Xiao Jing glanced at Gu Beichen, and then said, "women, there are only a few things in life... You can propose to Miss Jane? Romantic and luxurious... Tut Tut, I can guarantee that when Miss Jane is moved, she will follow you with all her heart." "Do you think Jane will?" Gu Beichen asked with an eyebrow. Seeing that Gu Beichen paid attention to him, Xiao Jing quickly said solemnly: "Miss Jane likes money. If Chen is less, you have a bit of local tyrant temperament... Directly use money to fold it into flowers and spread it on his floor... A diamond as big as a pigeon''s egg and a dream as a small public offering... Tut Tut, be sure to use it!" Recently, because Xiao Jing wanted to eliminate the "plagiarism" incident of Jian Mo, he spent more time on the Internet and learned a mouthful of Internet terms. Especially when he saw that two stars spent 200 million on a wedding, he suddenly sighed... If Chen had one less proposal and spent 200 million, he wouldn''t believe Jian Mo or be moved. Gu Beichen listened to Xiao Jing''s unrestrained words. Gu Beichen suddenly said with eagle eyes: "you say, how about I directly use all kinds of black cards of major banks to spell a marryme?" As soon as Xiao Jing heard this, he immediately lost his thumb, "Chen Shao... Expert!" "Idiot!" Gu Beichen sneered coldly and decided to ignore Xiao Jing. Jane Mo likes money, but she never goes without her own money When she was given a supplementary card that time, she only took the 500000 she asked for, and there was no money left behind. Maybe he was wrong from the beginning... And what Jane Morse showed didn''t make him think deeply. But their relationship can be improved at the beginning. Well, Xiao Jing''s proposal is quite good... She was obviously envious when she proposed to Xiaoxiao to the South last time. When JK''s business is over, he should give her a new and unprofitable identity "What''s the matter with Jane Mo''s mother now?" Gu Beichen suddenly asked. Xiao Jing was stunned and then replied, "some time ago, Dr. Wang contacted me and said there was a suitable heart source, but Mrs. Jane''s body is not suitable for surgery now." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "look back and know more about it..." "OK!" Xiao Jing answered. However, none of them thought of it at the moment, because the next things happened one by one, so that too much happened. Before they had time to deal with it, it had become a thing of the past. The snowflakes in Los Angeles are floating a little big, from small snow grains to heavy snow flakes... Falling layer by layer. "Come on, arrange the operating room..." Dr. Wang hurried to the nurse as he examined Su mo. The nurse''s footsteps came and went, and the hurried voice fell on Jian Mo''s ear, like a knife cutting her late. Jane Mo stood there and looked at Sumer. The sound of the heart rate instrument in her ear was so strange that it was harsh... The sound of electric shock seemed to fall on her heart... It hurts! "Well..." Jane Mo suddenly covered her stomach and made a muffled sound. It was like pulling a tendon, and she bent slightly. No one saw Jian Mo''s discomfort. While Sumer''s heartbeat recovered after the electric shock, Dr. Wang pushed the hospital bed with the nurse and ran to the operating room Jane Mo endured the pain of her lower abdomen and bit her teeth to follow her out. However, in an instant, her face was as white as paper, and a layer of thin sweat overflowed from her forehead. With a bang, the light in the operating room came on. Jane Mo leaned against the wall, holding her lower abdomen and biting her lips tightly She can''t fall, she can''t fall... She can''t fall! Jane Mo reminded herself again and again, as if the pain in her lower abdomen was gradually lightened a little? "Foam?" A soft voice came from one side. Jian Mo looked sideways and saw that it was su Junli. Because I met Su Junli in the hospital last time, no one was surprised this time. Su Jun strode over, his face a little dignified, looked at the light in the operating room, and asked, "is it aunt?" Jane Mo pursed her lips and nodded. Su Jun frowned at the moment. "Don''t worry, aunt will be fine..." The corner of Jane Mo''s mouth jerked off. She didn''t want to face it, but she knew clearly... Knew the result! Lips, the closer they are, the tighter they are. Jian Mo''s hand also clutched involuntarily, and she didn''t know that her fingernails were embedded in the palm of her hand until there was a red overflow Su Jun tightened his eyebrows when he left, and as soon as he pulled Jian Mo''s hand, he wanted to open her tightly held hand, "Mo Mo, let go!" "Huh?" Jane Mo looked at her hand with some stupidity, but her hand didn''t loosen. Su Jun frowned and pulled away Jian Mo''s fingers one by one. Seeing that she wanted to hold them together again, she simply put her hand into the middle of her hand The tingling feeling of gradually exerting force came, but Su Junli didn''t frown at all... It doesn''t matter if such pain fell on him! With the passage of time, Jian Mo gradually became unable to hold on, and there were more and more cold sweat on her forehead. Su Junli was worried about Jian Mo''s body and couldn''t help saying, "Mo Mo, do you want to sit down first... Huh?" Jane Mo was completely unconscious now. Her body trembled slightly, and the pain from her lower abdomen made her bend slightly. Su Jun Li''s eyebrows frowned tighter. A nurse happened to pass by. He hurried to stop: "Hello, could you please call a doctor... She''s a little uncomfortable." The nurse knew that Jane Mo was Sumer''s daughter. Seeing her pale face, she quickly nodded and went to find a female doctor. Jian Mo was persuaded by Su Junli to sit in a chair. The doctor wanted to examine her, but her mind was empty and didn''t answer anything. The doctor just watched her cover her lower abdomen all the time and frowned. Then he looked at Su Junli and said, "she''s not easy to check like this. Let me ask the nurse to come and take a blood test for her?" Su Junli nodded. Soon, a nurse came to draw blood and left with the doctor. "Dr. he, what items are tested?" Asked the nurse. He Yining said, "send it to gynecology to see if you are pregnant?" Chapter 195 Time, a little bit of the past. The snow outside is getting heavier and heavier. From white to night, a thick layer has fallen on the ground. Jian Mo''s face is getting whiter and whiter. Su Junli is worried that she will not be able to support it. She simply calls Lu Hanyu, her mother who is resting in the VIP ward upstairs, and asks sister Hua who takes care of her to prepare something to eat and send it to the operation floor of the cardiology department. Hearing that her son was still in the hospital, Lu Han became curious... She asked sister Hua to prepare food, put on her clothes and went to the operation floor first. From a distance, Su Junli hugged a girl. Although she looked haggard, the girl was white and good-looking. She couldn''t help smiling, and her eyes were full of ambiguity. When he came forward and looked at the operating room, Lu asked, "is it a heart disease?" Su Junli looked up. "Mom? Why did you get down?" Then he looked at Jane Mo, who had been dull for a long time. "I''ll come down and see what''s going on..." Lu Hanyu looked at Jian Mo and felt a little distressed. "Have you been in for a long time?" Su Jun nodded, "I came down from you and went in." He occasionally came to the hospital to talk with his mother... Since he knew that Jane Mo''s mother was here last time in the hospital, as long as he came here, he would come down to see Sumer. It''s just that I didn''t expect to encounter such a situation when I came here today. Sister Hua quickly prepared nutritious chicken soup and brought it over. It''s obviously unrealistic to let Jane Mo eat at this time. Drink some chicken soup, one is to supplement water, the other is also nutritious. Jian Mo drank a bowl of chicken soup mechanically under Su Junli''s gentle whisper. It was delicious, but... There was no taste in the mouth. After seeing her drink, Su Jun left and drank a bowl with her bowl. As soon as Lu Hanzhen saw her, he looked at her like sister Hua... They all knew that Su Junli had a slight cleanliness habit. He would never use things that others had used without cleaning. Sister Hua smiled with Lu Hanyu with deep meaning, and then the two collected their things and went upstairs. Just after they walked for a few minutes, the sound of "bang" came. At the same time, Jane Mo stood up in a moment of surprise. Dr. Wang and the nurse came out tired. Jian Mo''s legs were like lead. They wanted to move, but they couldn''t lift them. Su Junli held Jian Mo, looked at the coming Doctor Wang and asked, "doctor, how''s aunt?" Dr. Wang took off his mask and looked at Jian Mo with a heavy face I still remember when he first saw Jane Mo in the hospital two years ago... At that time, she cried with tears in her heart holding her father''s body. Mood, instantly fell to the bottom. "Wang... Doctor Wang..." Jane Mo tried to calm herself, but her voice was trembling. "My mother... My mother she..." she swallowed hard, "she, she... How''s she?" Dr. Wang looked at Jian Mo sadly, secretly clenched his teeth and said, "little Jane, I''m sorry... We''ve tried our best..." Jane Mo''s eyelashes began to tremble. She resisted the words she had heard once two years ago. Her breathing has begun to fluff, and even began to rush Su Junli looked at Jian Mo with grave concern, "Mo Mo......" "No, it won''t... how could this happen?" Jane Mo kept fanning her eyelashes and shaking her head, "no... clearly said that she had found the right heart source, and clearly said that her mother could be fine... Why, why... Why?" At the last sound, Jian Mo roared at Dr. Wang. Dr. Wang looked at Jian Mo sadly and wanted to comfort her. However, as a doctor, he... At the moment, there was nothing else he could do except to bring her Sumer''s death information. The nurse looked at Jian Mo''s collapse and sour her nose one by one She is only 23 years old. In her beautiful years, she lost her father and mother for two years... How cruel is God to her? He Yining stood in front of the elevator with the blood test report and looked at Jian Mo, who had collapsed, with a dignified face. "Mom won''t leave me, won''t leave me..." Jane Mo shook her head, tears pouring out uncontrollably, "you lied to me, you lied to me... You..." At the last sound, Jane Mo didn''t shout out. She only felt that her eyes were black and the person was paralyzed in an instant "Mo Mo, Mo Mo -" Su Jun quickly dragged Jian Mo''s soft body, grabbed it horizontally, and ran to the examination room. Why did Ning hurry up and enter the examination room. "You go out first..." he Yining took disposable gloves and said to Su Junli at the same time, and then ordered the nurse to say, "call Dr. Song to come here." The nurse answered and hurried to call Dr. Song. Dr. song came very quickly. When she came, he Yining had given Jane Mo a general examination, and then said to her, "she is five and a half weeks pregnant. See if it affects the fetus." Dr. Song listened, nodded and pulled the color Doppler ultrasound instrument to check Jian mo After a detailed examination, he said: "pregnant women have too much emotional fluctuation and have slight tire slip." Why Ning frowned slightly and then said, "deal with it first, and I''ll inform my family." Then she went out and told Su Junli about Jian mo. Su Junli''s eyes widened after hearing this. He didn''t expect that the child would be checked out at this moment "I can''t make a decision for her," Su Junli said seriously. "But I hope you can try your best to keep your children at this time... Don''t worry about the cost." He Yining nodded and then turned back to the examination room. Su Junli looked at the pulled curtain, and there was a touch of complex emotion at the bottom of his eyes... The passing of a life, the arrival of a life... Is God a comfort to Mo Mo? Just, can she and Gu Beichen continue? Gu Beichen just got off the plane and Susan picked it up in a car. "JK made a counterattack," Susan said solemnly. "I suspect they made a ghost of things in the United States..." "Unfortunately, they didn''t expect Chen Shao to deal with it so quickly!" Xiao Jing sneered, "tomorrow''s acquisition meeting will be held as scheduled." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but hung his eyes and took out his mobile phone to open it... There were text messages and unanswered phone reminders. None of them was Jian mo. I feel a little lost His eyes were slightly deeper. Gu Beichen''s slender fingers drifted rapidly on the screen. A short breath was stuffed into Jian Mo and fell on the Su Mo ward, still on the mobile phone in his bag Mr. G: I have something to say to you when I deal with the matter at hand! Remember to have meal on time. Chapter 196 In the quiet ward, only the sound of breathing echoed. Su Junli gently wiped the fine beads of sweat overflowing from Jian Mo''s forehead with a warm towel, showing pity. "Don''t... mom... Don''t leave me..." from time to time, Jane Mo''s voice was full of sadness. Su Jun was more and more dignified on his warm and handsome face. His big palm gently grabbed Jian Mo''s hand and held it in the palm. He said softly: "Mo Mo, life is full of problems and difficult for us... You have to be strong, you know?" "Mom... Mom..." Jane Mo locked Xiumei and shook her head. Suddenly, she screamed and suddenly sat up, "Mom -" Su Jun hurried up, "foam?" Jian Mo looked at Su Junli and asked excitedly, "where''s my mother, where''s my mother?" Su Junli grabbed Jian Mo''s shoulder blade and didn''t let her move, "Mo Mo, aunt has gone..." "No, no..." Jian Mo roared, "that''s not true!" Su Junli calmly looked at Jian Mo, "that''s true!" He gritted his teeth and said, "Momo, aunt left, she left you... Just want to be with your uncle, you can''t be selfish and just care about yourself!" Listening to Su Junli''s calm voice, Jian Mo''s tears "brushed" fell uncontrollably, "I don''t want... I don''t want my mother to leave me... I don''t want..." She collapsed and leaned her forehead against Su Junli''s shoulder in despair. At that moment, she felt that all her persistence in the past two years had become a joke. Su Junli held Jian Mo in her arms and surrounded her trembling body. Her voice was as soft as playing a soothing violin song. "Everything will pass... Everything will get better." The next day, the sunshine, which had been gloomy for several days, finally broke through the thick clouds and refracted on the snow on the ground, making people unable to open their eyes. Early in the morning, the snow sweeper has begun to clean the snow on the road. The sound of "Hula" is full of mechanical noise, which is annoying. "According to our reporter''s report, the emperor''s senior management worked overtime last night until early this morning and made plans to acquire JK..." the capable voice of the female anchor of the morning news came from the radio. "The emperor''s personnel said that the last battle today will be fought by the emperor''s president Gu Beichen in person..." "Because Gu Beichen and Shen Chu were lovers before, it was revealed that after Shen Chu came back, Gu Beichen had many close contacts with him, and there was no taboo at all, as if he was still in love..." another media reported, "we speculate that today''s emperor''s final comprehensive acquisition of JK will be stranded because of Shen Chu?" "Our news: JK personnel have gone to the Emperor... Whether to completely acquire or absolutely control will be announced after the first snow in winter!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Early in the morning, various media have begun to wash people''s eardrums. Whether it is the emperor''s acquisition of JK or between Gu Beichen and Shen Chu, it seems to have become the only media topic in recent days. While the acquisition was in full swing in the media, Jian Mo was already standing in the morgue in black plain clothes. With trembling hands, she gently pulled on the white cloth, tried her best to suppress the sadness and clenched her teeth tightly. Su Junli was in a heavy mood. "Everything has been contacted. I asked the hospital to arrange..." he looked at Su Mo covered with white cloth and said, "foam, will you send it today?" Jane Mo''s eyelashes trembled and nodded. Su Junli is right. In fact, her mother left... It''s also a relief. Because of her persistence, her mother has been in the hospital bed for more than two years. Does she still want her mother to stay in the cold place of the morgue after she leaves? Just because... She doesn''t give up? She can''t It''s heavy and cold here, the sunshine outside is dazzling, and the enthusiasm of the media is full of the first snow Outside the emperor group, media reporters have been crowded there. In the cold weather, long guns and short cannons are waiting for the biggest economic turmoil in Los Angeles in recent years. A limousine drove over and started shooting with SLRs one by one... However, when they found that they were not the expected people, they hooked their necks and waited. Gu Beichen stood in front of the French window of the office and looked at the ice flowers on the window... The ink pupil gradually became deep and bottomless. Mo Shaochen knocked on the door and came in. "There''s still half an hour to sign the contract..." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered softly. Mo Shaochen made coffee. "What are you thinking?" He looked curiously at Gu Beichen. "I''ve been busy for so many days, day and night..." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and said faintly, "I''m thinking whether to go home for dinner at night or call her out for dinner." The tumbling sound of making coffee came. Mo Shaochen looked at Gu Beichen for a long time and asked, "then?" Gu Beichen converged his eyes and lowered his eyes slightly. "I''ll talk about divorce with her these two days..." Mo Shaochen immediately frowned, "I thought you were moved to her... Originally, I still misunderstood!" "You don''t understand wrong..." Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised an arc and turned slowly, "divorce is just to start over..." Mo Shaochen doesn''t understand. Gu Beichen smiled more and more deeply, "I don''t want to give her a handle in the future..." At the beginning of interests, there is always something missing. Mo Shaochen stared at Gu Beichen deeply. Even though he had been with Shen Chu before, Beichen had never shown such a hesitant expression. "Since your heart has changed, you shouldn''t give Xiaochu hope..." Mo Shaochen said coldly and poured two cups of coffee. Gu Beichen took a cup and took a sip. The black coffee was bitter and astringent. It spread through the taste buds, leaving a unique mellow fragrance... The most important thing is to refresh yourself! "I just want to know if she will appear today..." Gu Beichen said faintly, and the eagle''s eyes were already deep and bottomless. It''s five to ten. In the acquisition and signing conference room, both JK and the emperor''s personnel, except for each other''s leaders, have arrived. Today is the final negotiation. In any case, JK''s history will be rewritten after today... And the emperor''s purpose is to acquire a wholly-owned company. The second hand "Da Da Da" is moving. As time approaches, everyone''s heart coagulates. By two points, as the emperor of the acquirer, Gu Beichen had already stepped into the conference room with Mo Shaochen He stood in the first place, and the hand cut suit wrapped his body with wide shoulders and narrow hips, which was already great and fierce. "Pedal, pedal, pedal..." Outside the meeting room, there was the sound of high-heeled shoes beating on the ground, looking arrogant. The door of the conference room was opened again and several people came in Gu Beichen didn''t go to see it, but the thin lip side gradually drew a sneering arc... Under that arc, there was indifference and disappointment. When Mo Shaochen saw Shen Chu standing there, his eyes were filled with horror. Gu Beichen tilted his head, and the ink pupil slightly lifted up against Shen Chu... His cold face was so indifferent that there was no change because of Shen Chu''s appearance. Shen Chu and Gu Beichen looked at each other. His indifference made her close her lower lip involuntarily... The fundus of her eyes gradually overflowed and looked at him with guilt. "Now..." Gu Beichen gently lifted his thin lips, and his voice was calm without any tone. "Should I call you... President Shen?" Chapter 197 Shen Chu''s heart suddenly shook. She didn''t dare to look directly at Gu Beichen On the day the design of the imperial club was exposed, her relationship with Gu Beichen was repaired... She knew that after today, she would have to go back. But she had no choice! Since she was born, she was destined to compete... To let the Shen family recognize her and her mother! Shen Chu pursed his lower lip, took a breath and said, "I''m the representative of JK..." she clenched her hand, "it''s really right for president Gu to call me that." Gu Beichen smiled, and his thin lips gently raised a thin smile... But such a smile had no temperature, and the stiffness had not spread there. At the beginning of the meeting, there was still a verbal battle between the lawyers of both sides. Gu Beichen didn''t say a word from the beginning of the meeting. Even, he looked down slightly and didn''t look at anyone. However, the slender fingers gently knocked on the desktop, which fell on the heart of JK personnel, showing the oppression of courage. Shen Chu didn''t see Gu Beichen like this for the first time... When he decided to replace Gu Moyuan five years ago, he was like this once. From beginning to end, the corners of the mouth hang a smile, which is very light, but it shows the pressure that makes people feel cold at the bottom of their feet. The two sides kept negotiating, but it was obvious that there was a dumping victory under the emperor''s lawyer team led by Mo Shaochen and the senior executives led by the emperor''s general manager. Shen Chu took back the sight on Gu Beichen''s face and fell on Mo Shaochen. He happened to be looking at her, too. There was a complex in the bottom of his eyes. Shen Chu''s hand holding the pen tightened, and there was a touch of helplessness in the bottom of his eyes Just as the two sides were about to turn white hot, Shen Chu suddenly said, "wait!" The people looked at her, and even Gu Beichen, who had been drooping his eyes, raised his eyes and looked at her His sight was like a calm sea without waves. However, deep in the fundus, the undercurrent has been surging. Shen Chu gestured to the Secretary beside him to take out a piece of information. After grasping it again, he said: "this is a piece of information in the process of the emperor''s acquisition of JK. According to relevant regulations, the emperor has fundamentally lost the conditions for acquisition!" Mo Shaochen''s eyes became sharp. At this moment, he seemed to have never known the woman sitting opposite him... He copied the information in his hand with his trust in her? It''s more difficult for you to see the negative impact of the acquisition of the tiger regiment at the beginning of this time. "I don''t believe that the emperor will not be able to bear the negative impact of the acquisition of the tiger regiment at the beginning of this time, but I don''t think it will be more difficult for you to see the information......" After that, she secretly clenched her teeth and looked at Gu Beichen. "Mr. Gu," she paused, "I think... You should know very well." With that, she has pushed the information to him. Gu Beichen didn''t move, but stopped tapping his fingers, and the smile on his thin lips deepened a little, "I''ve been thinking... Will you show up today." Shen Chu frowned slightly and was seen by Gu Beichen''s indifferent sight. Gu Beichen looked at Shen Chu in disappointment, then hung his eyes, took the data and flipped it casually. All the moves were reckless and evil, and he didn''t care. "What I want is only two results..." Gu Beichen said faintly, "either get it or destroy it!" He combined the information and looked at Shen Chu again. "Xiao Chu, what do you think... What kind of JK do I have?" Shen Chu''s heart suddenly "clattered". I don''t know why. It was a particularly favorable thing. Suddenly she felt it was a sharp weapon to laugh at her. The Secretary suddenly received a text message. After reading it, his face suddenly became frightened She looked at Gu Beichen in disbelief, then hurriedly bent over Shen Chu''s ear and whispered, "the emperor has purchased 69% of JK''s shares and now has absolute control over JK." As soon as Shen Chu heard this, he was surprised and couldn''t help looking at the secretary. He couldn''t speak for a long time "From beginning to end, I didn''t want to buy JK wholly..." Gu Beichen''s voice came in time. "Absolute holding is the emperor''s main strategy for JK this time. What you see, even what the outside world sees... Is a cover!" When he said this, everyone in JK became frightened Because everyone thought that the emperor wanted to wholly acquire JK, and all his energy was spent on it. He even let him secretly get the shares of loose shares and some directors. This meeting, obviously, has no meaning... Even, it has become a means of mocking JK. In the conference room, except Gu Beichen and Shen Chu, everyone walked out again and again Before Mo Shaochen went out, his eyes fell on Shen Chu. Just before she took out this information, he was complaining about Beichen. Even if she was wrong... He shouldn''t use her! But what? Mo Shaochen''s heart was complex and heavy. He put a self mockery on the corner of his mouth and left the conference room. Xiao Jing closed the door of the meeting room, and the man waited outside, with his eyes down and a sneer on his lips. There was silence in the meeting room. After a long time, until the air seemed to be condensed, Shen Chu seemed to bite his teeth and said, "today is a trap from beginning to end..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered without hesitation, "just, the last thing I want to see today is you!" His eagle eyes narrowed slightly, revealing undisguised disappointment. "Xiaochu, I''m always thinking... If you can still be the same as before, how good would it be? Even if we can''t continue, you can leave a place in my heart, can''t you?" "Not good!" Shen Chu gritted his teeth. "My father forced me to leave for you! Now I come back for you... My father forced me again! Who thought of me? As before? How can I be as before?" Gu Beichen listened to Shen Chu''s words, and the disappointment at the bottom of his eyes became more and more strong, "force you?" He said softly, "if you don''t want to do something, who can force you?" Shen Chu''s eyes turned red. She looked at Gu Beichen and insisted with forbearance, "I don''t want to come today... I know how disappointed you will be with me when I come. I don''t want to take that information... I know how you and Shaochen think of me?" She trembled her eyelashes and her eyes were wet. "But what can I do?" After she questioned, her voice screamed, "Beichen, I have pain here..." she covered her heart, "do you understand?" "I left five years ago for me, but now I don''t want to be the opposite of me..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth gently, so that people can''t hear the emotion under his words. "You did those means to achieve your goal... Also for me..." Shen Chu looked at him with tears. At that moment, he seemed to agree with him, but he couldn''t speak. Gu Beichen smiled, just laughing... At this moment, he didn''t know whether he was laughing at himself or at Shen Chu. "Xiaochu''er, if you can be arrogant at this moment, you don''t want to win my pity or sympathy..." Gu Beichen looked at Shen Chu''s slightly rigid face and slowly said the second half sentence, "... I may feel guilty." Shen Chu''s eyes widened. His tears overflowed and ran hot across his cheeks. "You, what do you mean?" Chapter 198 "What do you mean?" Gu Beichen chuckled, and then his smile gradually converged. The eagle looked at Shen Chu with deep eyes and said slowly, "you don''t know why I waited for you to tell me why I left five years ago? Because I want you to tell me the deal between you and your father!" Shen Chu was shocked! Gu Beichen continued: "I know the purpose of your return, but I think... If I still have feelings for you and you are still interested in me, you won''t participate in this matter." "Another pity..." Gu Beichen continued, "I have no feelings for you. It''s just that one thing always has to end. And you... Have never been interested in me!" His voice was cold, "yes, just turn me into your pedal... Achieve what you want!" Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen with dilated pupils. At that moment, she seemed to have something in her body evacuated "Do you know?" Shen Chu asked uncertainly. Gu Beichen frowned softly. "Yes, I know... I knew it soon after you left." Shen Chu laughed at herself. Now, she is a real joke! "Since you all know, why should you be so kind to me when I come back?" Shen Chu cried and questioned Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows. "I said... I need a result!" People have their own persistence. He also has Gu Beichen! When Shen Chu first came back, he always thought, if he still had feelings for her, would JK stop... Would everything change next? Unfortunately, there is no if JK is bound to win, and it is inevitable to nibble at it step by step. And love is gone without His heart has been left on her in the plain but sunny life between him and Jian mo... But he couldn''t see it clearly before. He didn''t see it until Shen Chu came back with a comparison. "Because you want a result, so... You use me?" Shen Chu asked with a sad smile. Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but silence already represents everything! "Gu Beichen," Shen Chu gritted his teeth, "you changed your mind, but finally put all the responsibility on me..." after her questioning, she looked at Gu Beichen with hatred, then pulled the bag, turned around and left over him. The sound of "bang" came through the anger and fell in Gu Beichen''s heart. Does it matter at all? How? However, the disappointment at the bottom of his eyes will nibble away those indifferent, little by little... What can''t he remember? Five years ago, her feelings were false. Five years later, she came back because he was false... And it''s true that she used that means to attack Mo''er! Gu Beichen made a mockery of himself at the corners of his mouth. He was cold! Mo Shaochen stood in front of the window of Gu Beichen''s office. The warm sunshine seemed to dispel all the cold and shone on him Until the moment before that, he didn''t believe that Shen Chu would finally get the information Can time really change everything? Can interests and rights make a person lose his way? Mo Shaochen doesn''t know, just knows... Seeing today''s Shen Chu, his heart hurts The sun is warm, but the air is cold. Sumer''s business behind him is so fast that people can''t keep anything even if they want to keep it. Su Mo''s ashes have been put into Jane''s tomb At that moment, there were only Su Junli and Li Xiaoyue around her! Jian Mo stood quietly in front of the tombstone and watched Su Mo''s name fall next to Jian Zhanfeng''s name. Her sight was a little empty and blurred... Her father and mother loved each other so much before they died, and now they are together again Li Xiaoyue left first because there was a court to be held. Su Junli looked worried, didn''t speak, didn''t cry, and didn''t even have any emotion. Jian Mo, who looked very plain, couldn''t help worrying and said, "Mo Mo, let aunt go at ease!" Jane Mo didn''t speak, just gently fanned her eyes Su Junli became more and more worried, "foam..." "I want to be alone," said Jane Mo Muran. "Jun Li, can you leave me alone?" Su Jun was worried about leaving. He didn''t want to... However, he also clearly saw from Jian Mo''s face that she was going to be unable to hold on. Maybe it''s best for her to let her vent now. Otherwise, her body will be unbearable! "I''ll wait for you outside..." Su Junli finally opened his mouth, looked at Jian Mo uneasily, and then turned to walk outside the cemetery. Time passed little by little. As the sun moved westward, the temperature seemed to drop a lot. Jane Mo''s hands were red with cold. She gently stroked the cold tombstone, still without any expression. Vent, no need Mother''s departure, in fact, was made clear by Dr. Wang''s express hint a long time ago, wasn''t it? Just like her marriage with Gu Beichen, she knew the ending from the beginning! The setting sun in the sky has become a remnant of the red glow, magnificent people want to keep, but it seems to die faster Jane Mo put her cheek on the tombstone and said softly, "Dad, mom... I will live seriously and won''t let you down." Her nose began to sour and her eyes were filled with a layer of water mist. However, the corners of her mouth pulled a strong smile, "Dad, I will make you proud with my grades... I will tell everyone that Jane Zhanfeng''s daughter is OK!" The wind was blowing gently, and what fell on the evergreen trees was floating snow, which fell on Jian mo On the snow, she left a string of footprints. A gust of wind blew and became illusory. "Take me back!" Jane Mo spoke faintly. Su Jun frowned, "you haven''t eaten for a day..." he looked down at Jian Mo''s lower abdomen, "even if you don''t have an appetite, you can''t eat in your stomach..." He didn''t go on, just with a heavy heart. Jane Mo drooped her eyes, gently put her hand on her lower abdomen, and the bottom of her eyes was tender I used to take contraceptives. After Xiaoyue''s incident, the doctor said the harm of contraceptives. Gu Beichen refused to take them... Said he controlled them. In fact, he never got it inside again, except that time... He and she were dazzled by anger, and no one cared. God closed the door for her, but opened a window... Mother left, and a little life was quietly pregnant in her stomach. It came so suddenly. "Are you going to tell him?" Su Junli started the car and drove to sister Hua''s apartment. At that time, he had called sister Hua and said he would bring foam to eat her stewed nutritious soup. Jane Mo doesn''t know whether Su Junli is talking about her mother or her child, but she doesn''t want to say anything for the time being. She went to sister Hua''s house to drink nutritious soup, and Jane Mo just forced herself to drink some. Su Junli knew she had no appetite and didn''t force her any more. She just took out a thermos box and put a jar in it for Jane Mo to bring. In case she was hungry at night, she could have something ready-made. They haven''t gone out yet. It''s just time for the news on TV Only listen to the male anchor said: "it is reported that the emperor takes absolute control of JK''s board of directors today, and an interim board meeting will be held at JK''s headquarters tomorrow... JK''s history will be rewritten!" The female anchor followed, "it is said that the emperor would have purchased JK wholly, but because of the final negotiation table, the representative of JK group changed from Shen Hangzhi to JK Qianjin Shen Chu, and the originally scheduled wholly-owned acquisition became absolute holding!" "Next, please see the detailed report..." In the later detailed report and analysis, Jian Mo didn''t listen to a word, but quietly put on his shoes, said hello to sister Hua and went out of the door What people fear most is comparison One competition, people''s heart will degenerate! Su Junli watched Jian Mo mechanically walk to the elevator and stand there without pressing the down button. He looked sadly and painfully... He wanted to come forward and say to her: Mo Mo, leave him... You can have me next to you in the future! Chapter 199 "Call me about something, huh?" At the gate of Runze garden, Su Junli said. Jane Mo nodded. She didn''t say thank you. She just looked at Su Jun gratefully and got out of the car with the insulation box Weakly pressed the password and opened the door. The light inside was on... Jane Mo frowned slightly and was surprised. Before entering the door, he saw Gu Beichen standing there in his home clothes. For a moment, Jian Mo shook his mind and felt that the figure in front of him was illusory Jane Mo smiled, looked at Gu Beichen with a pale and astringent smile and said, "I seem... Hallucinating again?" Gu Beichen''s face turned black as soon as he heard this Jane Mo entered the door and put the heat preservation bucket and bag aside. When Gu Beichen just wanted to "criticize", she suddenly hugged him around his waist and hugged him Gu Beichen''s words were immediately blocked in his mouth, and he couldn''t say a word He instinctively gently circled Jane Mo''s body, "what''s the matter?" Jian Mo didn''t speak, but his hand around Gu Beichen''s waist tightened again, his cheek pressed tightly against his chest, listening to his strong and regular heartbeat, "husband, at this moment... Can you hold me tightly without saying anything?" Jane Mo has never been so dependent. In the past, she was just trying to please, and she would never be like this Gu Beichen felt that Jian Mo was wrong, but he held her tightly without much thought. They didn''t know how long they held it like this. For a long time, Jian Mo felt a little helpless and sad. He suddenly released Gu Beichen, then grabbed his clothes on his chest, stood on tiptoe and kissed his thin lips The two haven''t met for several days. Gu Beichen is busy with JK. During this period, he also went to the United States to deal with problems. Originally, it was normal for each other not to see each other for such a few days or even have no news about each other. But at this moment, we all have a feeling that such separation is too much to miss Kisses are long, domineering and far-reaching. Love is uncontrollable However, at the last time when both of them were moved, Jane Mo didn''t let Gu Beichen continue. When she woke up last night, Dr. he just patrolled the room and told her some precautions for pregnant women Although she knew that she would not be eager for sex under such mood, she still explained that because of her emotional problems, the child has some unstable implantation, so it''s best not to be together in the early stage of pregnancy. Jane Mo dare not have an accident... This is a gift from God. She cherishes it very much! Gu Beichen has some dissatisfaction, but fortunately, he has Jian Mo Ruan Xiang in his arms. In addition, he has some "Calculations" in his heart. If he wants to implement it, he can only be sorry for his little brother. "What''s the matter, huh?" Gu Beichen knew that Jane Mo was wrong today and asked, "is there something wrong again?" Jane Mo didn''t seriously understand Gu Beichen''s words, but casually said: "no... Just miss her husband." Gu Beichen knew that Jian Mo said it casually and was a little angry, but when he thought that Jian Mo was like this on weekdays, he didn''t destroy it. He said angrily, "did I see the text message I sent you last night?" As soon as Jane Mo listened, she frowned slightly... The mobile phone was called by people from the design department and the company, and the phone had run out of power. She didn''t look at whether there was a text message on it. Gu Beichen saw that Jane Mo didn''t speak. He thought she was uncomfortable after reading the message. He said to himself, "Jane Mo, I have something to say to you..." "Yes!" Jane Mo answered softly. Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo and thought of everything Xiao Jing would prepare for tomorrow. Gu Beichen was looking forward to it now When Mo''er''s heart suddenly falls to the bottom of the valley, and then finds that everything is false, will he fall in love with him happily in the end? After a long silence, Gu Beichen said slowly, "forget it, talk about it tomorrow!" "Yes!" Jane Mo answered, then quietly lay down in Gu Beichen''s arms and closed her sour eyes. It''s time to end... She doesn''t need to keep any, as long as she has the company in her stomach! Jane Mo soon fell asleep. She didn''t sleep well for several days because of the repeated illness of Sumer. Today, her nerves are tense again... At this moment, she quickly unloaded all her emotions in her familiar arms and entered her dream. Gu Beichen took his cell phone and sent a text message to Xiao Jing after Jian Mo fell asleep for a while: have you started the layout? Xiao Jing is talking to several people under the Dragon owl. When he receives Gu Beichen''s short message, he replies with dissatisfaction: Chen Shao, the machine needs to rest for a long time! You won''t propose until tomorrow evening. I promise I''ll set it up for you, OK? Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing''s short breath and frowned slightly: if you make a mistake, deduct your year-end bonus! Xiao Jing: Chen Shao, just don''t drop the chain... I''ll handle the business. Don''t worry! Gu Beichen just finished reading the text message, and Xiao Jing stuffed another one in: however, if this time is done well, will Chen Shao reward me 50% of the year-end bonus? Look, we''re not greedy, are we? As long as it is deducted Gu Beichen looked at it and couldn''t help laughing and crying... A special aid with an annual figure of eight has been struggling with the 50% year-end bonus of the million? Xiao Jing saw that Gu Beichen didn''t pay attention to him anymore, and his depressed stomach Fei said: hum, I hope Miss Er Jian won''t agree to your proposal tomorrow night He thought so, but he didn''t really hope so However, when some things happen to pile together, you have to sigh that things are changeable Night, no matter how long. When a new day comes, it shows new hope. "Oh" a soft chant overflowed Jane Mo''s throat, and she tried to open her eyes Gu Beichen is no longer around. Jian Mo is a little lost. She lifts the quilt and gets out of bed to wash I haven''t been to the company for several days. I drew a design drawing in the hospital and didn''t let Xiang come late to pick it up. It''s been delayed for a day and I want to send it back today. Looking at her haggard self in the mirror, Jane Mo put on her makeup... When she was putting on lip gloss, she remembered what Gu Beichen said last night. It''s time to end Mother left and divorced... Should she apply directly with president Yu to go to England in advance today? She changed her clothes and went out of the bedroom. When she saw Gu Beichen still there, Jane Mo was surprised, "didn''t you go?" Gu Beichen looked and slept for a while. Jian Mo, who looked a little better, frowned slightly. "It''s very cold to melt snow. Why don''t you wear thicker?" "The company nearly fell down in five minutes..." Jane Mo disguised so that people can''t see anything, "you need style!" "Don''t count on me when you''re cold..." Gu Beichen just wanted to say something and suddenly stopped. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and looked again at the pieces of paper on the tea table. His heart fell uncontrollably. At the same time, the corners of his mouth raised a smiling eyebrow and asked, "what did you say to me last night? If not, I''m expected to be very busy today..." The implication is that if you don''t say it now, you won''t have a chance today. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "It seems that you are busier than the president of my group..." he said so, and he motioned Jian Mo to come over. The marriage proposal will end this morning. Chapter 200 Jane Mo walked over. She already knew what was on the tea table. It seemed that she didn''t care what to say when Gu Beichen said again. "Jian mo..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth. His cold face was so indifferent that people couldn''t see what he was thinking. "There is a person in my heart..." he said. Jane Mo smiled at the corners of her mouth. Because of her makeup, the dawn was just reflected on her, shining brightly. However, as long as you face the light, there will be shadows... This seems to be ignored by everyone. Gu Beichen deeply coagulated Jian Mo for a while. Just then, he leaned over and handed her the "divorce agreement" on the tea table. Of course, he said, "Jian Mo, she is the only person I want to love in my life. Let''s divorce!" Jane Mo looked down at the divorce agreement. What was written on it? She was not in the mood to see I thought I wouldn''t be sad about what I already knew, but it turned out that kind of sadness was lurking in the bottom of my heart. "OK..." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her lips. No matter how sad she was, she still didn''t want to face it, but on her face, she calmly let Gu Beichen frown slightly. Although this divorce is the beginning of proposing marriage, can''t this woman be a little sad or sad? Gu Beichen felt a little uncomfortable, but he also knew that if he wanted to straighten out the relationship between the two people... He had to end the contractual relationship. Otherwise... This woman must always put her position right and be perfunctory to him. Jian Mo calmly took out his pen, "brush" twice and signed his name on the divorce agreement "Husband... Oh, no!" Jane Mo just spoke and quickly rejected herself. Gu Beichen immediately frowned. "Chen Shao, I have to go to work... I know you can handle the rest by yourself..." said Jian Mo, who didn''t notice Gu Beichen''s dark face, leaned over and kissed him on his thin lips, "it''s good to get together and disperse..." she said, and got up with a smile and wanted to leave. There was a faint fragrance of Jianmo lipstick on the corner of his lips. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at Jianmo''s natural and unrestrained "waving his sleeves without taking away a cloud", and his face sank immediately. "Jane Mo, don''t you give up at all?" Gu Beichen began to make trouble. Jane Mo stopped, and her face could not hide the sadness that cracked when she got up and left... She paused for several seconds before turning back with a smile at the corners of her mouth She asked cunningly in her clear and moving eyes, "if you don''t give up? If you don''t give up, you also want a divorce... You have a favorite woman in your heart. Do I still want you to let go?" She smiled at the apartment and showed her final disguise. "By the way, you said it was for me? If so, I wouldn''t find a house... It''s really close to my work." Gu Beichen''s cold face was filled with dissatisfaction. He only heard him say coldly, "you live here and don''t go anywhere!" Jane Mo thought Gu Beichen was used to being overbearing, and didn''t recognize the meaning in his tone. She just smiled and shrugged, "thank you, Chen is less..." she said, looking at the time, "I really have to go, otherwise I''ll be late!" Gu Beichen is very depressed. He is not very depressed about Jian Mo''s little nostalgia "Dinner together in the evening!" Gu Beichen said in a deep voice. "Break up dinner?" Jane Mo asked with an eyebrow. Gu Beichen''s thin lips moved and almost said it was a marriage proposal... But he held back and made a stuffy "um" sound. Jane Mo shrugged, "OK, the time and place are fixed, just send me a text message..." then she looked at the time, "I''ll go first, bye!" Gu Beichen watched Jian Mo leave and listened to the door lock fall. His mood was more and more depressed. When was he so out of breath? Seeing Jane Mo''s indifferent face, she almost told her that divorce is just a new beginning... She Jane Mo has been his wife, so she can only be his wife! This is Gu Beichen''s law! ¡­¡­ Jane Mo leaned against the elevator, and the smooth elevator wall reflected her face that she couldn''t disguise Sad? Want to cry? Sad? No... she is neither sad nor sad... And she doesn''t want to cry! In this world, nothing can hit her anymore Jane Mo stroked her lower abdomen and pursed her lips: milk bag, Mommy can have a wonderful life with you in the future! The sound of "Ding" came. While the elevator door opened, Jane Mo took a deep breath to keep herself from falling into the previous sadness. Mother left, Gu Beichen also left... At least, she is not all gone. On the way to work, Jane Mo bought herself soymilk and steamed stuffed buns. Even if she didn''t have any appetite, she had to eat... She didn''t allow the life in her stomach to pass away from her life. After arriving at the company, everyone came forward and cared about Jian mo Because Jane Mo didn''t show anything all the time, she was shocked to know that her mother had been in the hospital for two years. However, everything is too sudden, and the calm of the last moment can not stop the storm of the next moment. Jane Mo flushed her cell phone and read the text messages one by one... When she saw Gu Beichen''s one, she couldn''t help laughing at herself and then put away all her sadness. The phone rang at the right time. It was Li Xiaoyue. There was no superfluous words or even comfort... Just told her to move forward strongly. Don''t be afraid of falling, because she was padded behind her! The warmth between girlfriends makes Jane Mo feel very warm at this moment... Not all the world has abandoned her, has it? Because she is in the office, Jian Mo can''t tell Li Xiaoyue that she just got divorced in the morning. She just made an appointment to have dinner near Lingyu office building at noon. Just after hanging up Li Xiaoyue''s phone, Su Junli''s text message was stuffed in, nothing more than reminding her that she is not alone now and should take good care of herself Jian Mo couldn''t help laughing at Su Junli''s text message. Maybe they didn''t have much contact... But they seemed to have known each other for a long time. Jane Mo replied to the text message: I still owe you a meal for the last time in city A. why don''t we have dinner together in the evening? Su Junli quickly replied: OK! I''ll be waiting for you. Jane Mo smiled and pressed out her mobile phone, completely ignoring Gu Beichen''s so-called "break up meal"... What else do you eat after divorce? Thinking, Jane Mo got up and went to Yu Ziyun. "Have you handled it all?" Yu Ziyun was surprised to see Jian mo. even under special circumstances these days, she has never delayed the time of design drawings. Such a designer is really rare, "if you feel uncomfortable, take a few days off?" Jane Mo shook her head. This time Dr. Wang didn''t mention the cost, but she knew that she might have taken more money than... She couldn''t embarrass Dr. Wang after her mother left. "I came here today for two things..." Jane Mo said with a pursed lower lip. "I also want to borrow another 100000 yuan from the company! In addition, I want to go to England in advance..." she said hurriedly, "during this period, I will directly the design task handed over by the company." Yu Ziyun looked at Jian Mo and felt sorry for the 23-year-old girl. Without saying anything, he took out the check, wrote the number, handed it to Jian Mo, and then said seriously and sincerely, "I don''t want you to drain your talent because you are eager to use money... Jian Mo, I''ll wait for you to come back from UCL!" Chapter 201 Yu Ziyun''s words, if Jian Mo is not moved at the moment, it is a lie... In this world, if someone leaves you, someone will firmly not abandon you. For her lucky to have so many people around her, Jane Mo knows that she will walk better "Mr. Yu, thank you!" Jane Mo pursed her lips and said with a tearful smile. "When are you going to leave?" Yu Ziyun asked, "it''s decided. I''ll contact my tutor. You can take a class first when you pass..." he joked. "The design drawings in my hand have been completed now. If there is no accident, I want to go this week..." Jane Mo lowered her eyes. "I urgently need to leave to precipitate myself!" Yu Ziyun could understand Jian Mo''s idea and nodded, "well, tell me when you decide..." Jane nodded and went out with the check. In the afternoon, she plans to go to the hospital to settle the accounts of the hospital, and then deal with the affairs here in the past two days, and leave Los Angeles... To go to UCL for further study of architectural design. "Sister mo..." she looked at Jane Mo with a look of reluctance in her eyes. Jian Mo is strong and distressing. Mo Xiaoya pursed her mouth, hooked a smile, glanced at Xiang night and said, "let''s have dinner sometime? When we come back from UCL, we''ll be the real coffee." Ding Dang nodded hurriedly, and Da Xiong and others agreed one after another. Jian Mo is very grateful to have these colleagues around her from internship to work. They have no intrigues in other departments and make progress with each other... Although such a working environment is inseparable from the guidance of director Yu, it is also related to everyone''s good and progressive heart. "Tomorrow..." Jane Mo said, "I''ll be the host!" Everyone nodded their heads one after another. Such a time can''t help but make everyone feel more emotion... I''m afraid that Jian Mo''s departure is what happened in these two days. At noon, Li Xiaoyue came to have dinner with Jian Mo in a hot pot shop opposite Lingyu international. "I''m divorced..." Jane Mo said suddenly. Li Xiaoyue was about to go fishing for a fat cow. When listening to Jian Mo, she was stunned, then stared and asked, "what are you talking about?" Jane looked calm, "I''m divorced..." "You mean..." Li Xiaoyue said after organizing the language, "you and Gu Beichen..." she suddenly found that her voice was a little loud. She looked around subconsciously. When she saw that no one was paying attention, she leaned forward and lowered her voice, "you and Gu Beichen divorced?" Jane nodded, "the divorce agreement signed this morning!" "Does he know about his aunt?" Li Xiaoyue''s face was filled with anger. When the foam just moved out, he looked confused that night. Jane Mo shook her head. "From beginning to end, he didn''t know his mother''s existence..." she smiled. "I didn''t intend to let him know." Li Xiaoyue looked angry, "because of Shen Chu?" Jane Mo smiled astringently and shrugged, "it''s estimated..." "Shit!" Li Xiaoyue burst into foul language, "at first glance, that woman is hypocritical and doesn''t want to... Gu Beichen''s head was kicked by a donkey? Will he give up buying JK for that woman and divorce you!" "It''s good..." Jane Mo said calmly. "We were married for the sake of interests. I married him for my mother. Now my mother is gone... Divorce is good. At least... I don''t need to disguise." "That''s right..." Li Xiaoyue put down her chopsticks and said angrily, "let''s take our bright road and let those cheap men die!" Jane Mo smiled, lowered her eyes, stirred the talent in the next bowl and opened her mouth again: "Xiaoyue... I''m pregnant..." "..." Li Xiaoyue only felt that after the meal, her heart disease could be removed. "Lying in the trough..." she held it for a long time before she widened her eyes and said, "do you want such dog blood?" Jian Mo took a deep breath, looked up at Li Xiaoyue and said, "but I''m grateful... Because I''m not alone!" She smiled brightly and brightly. Li Xiaoyue instantly distressed Jian Mo, "but you go to school... It will be very hard to take your children alone." "Haven''t you worked hard in the past two years? I still came here..." Jane Mo smiled and had no burden at all. "I wonder if my mother will leave me at ease because she knows I have a milk bag?" She said so, what else can Li Xiaoyue persuade? Li Xiaoyue reached out and held Jian Mo''s hand. "Girl, it''s still that sentence... I''ll support you behind your back when you do anything." As she spoke, she quickly said, "make a statement in advance, no matter men or women, you must recognize me as a godmother!" Jane Mo pursed her mouth, smiled and nodded, "this is necessary!" The sunshine outside is just right, and the snow has almost melted under the hot caress of yesterday and today. In such weather, Paradise night was informed to close for one day... For the most famous entertainment city in Los Angeles, the direct loss caused by closing for one day is an unpredictable figure. "Tut Tut," Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen with his arms around his chest. Gu Beichen had taken off his suit and rolled up his shirt sleeve. He was working with the decorators there and couldn''t help saying, "boss long, this work is... It''s more youthful and energetic than xiangnandu!" The Dragon owl sat on a high stool and grabbed a glass of wine in his hand. His black pupil was slightly deep and said indifferently: "I just want to know whether he will pay me the Charter fee afterwards!" Li Yunze laughed, "it''s all right. You can send the bill directly to the emperor later... Didn''t you just buy so many shares of JK? He''s rich!" The Dragon owl''s thin lips gently raised, and the fundus of his eyes also caught a rare smile. Seeing that heaven night was almost arranged here, Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone and called Xiao Jing. His voice was chilly, "is the restaurant ready?" Xiao Jing was panting. "Chen Shao, make sure everything is OK!" "Not OK, deduct your year-end bonus next year!" Gu Beichen said angrily and hung up the phone. Xiao Jing grinned secretly. He played so crazy last night that he didn''t get up until noon today Chen Shao thought he was decorating the restaurant, but he was sleeping... You can imagine how angry Chen Shao was and how hard he was forced! However, I really can''t blame him... I''ve been busy day and night for several days. Who knows that once I play... Joy begets sorrow! Xiao Jing was forced hard, and Gu Beichen was depressed. He looked back at his two brothers, who looked on coldly and gloated, and dun felt even more depressed. Gu Beichen looked around and thought that there should be no problem with the progress, so he sent a text message to Jian mo Mr. G: Wangjiang garden, 6:30 pm, Mo''er, I''ll wait for you! Jane Mo looked at the text message and gradually became fascinated. She was used to "Mr. g" for two years. Now it became an indelible pain Break up dinner? Jane Mo smiled. She was no longer able to face him and pretended to be herself... So she didn''t care. Chapter 202 Gu Beichen waited for a long time and didn''t wait for Jian Mo''s reply. He was worried for a long time. He couldn''t help whispering, "didn''t you receive it?" After a pause, he frowned, "are you still too busy?" Gu Beichen finds a reason here. Jian Mo has gone back to the company and gone through the relevant procedures Because the company paid the living expenses and tuition fees for further study in UCL, which greatly reduced a lot of burden on Jian mo. In addition, during her study, the company has design drawings, and she can also get a commission if she is willing to get them. Such favorable conditions... Jian Mo knows that it is Yu Ziyun''s long-term plan, but she is still grateful. Although a designer''s qualifications represent value, if there is a harmonious atmosphere and a boss who appreciates your talents, she would rather be in this place "Sister mo..." Xiang night looked like she wanted to cry without tears. Jane Mo''s soft little girl''s head, "study hard and graduate next year. If you think Xiangyu is good, come here..." It''s too simple to go to other places. I''m afraid intrigue is not suitable for her. At least it''s clean here. Nodded to him later, "I have to wait for you to come back!" Jane Mo smiled, "Hmm!" She let out a long sigh and looked around. "Sophia hotel tomorrow night... Well, I''ll be a local tyrant once!" As soon as they heard this, the original dignified atmosphere was suddenly broken by Jane Mo''s joke... They couldn''t help laughing. The warm sun in early winter seems to be hot because of a snow. The time is very short. Before it''s time to get off work, the sun has moved west to the back of high-rise buildings. Jane Mo originally wanted to go to the hospital to give a check after work... However, the procedures were handled quickly. She simply planned to send it to the hospital and just left for dinner with Su Jun. Dr. Wang frowned slightly when he heard that Jian Mo came to settle the money from the hospital. When he just wanted to say that Su Mo had a special fund... When he thought about it, Xiao Jing had told him not to tell Jian Mo about it, so he gave it up. After all, he can''t get involved in the "fun" between husband and wife. "The book value of the hospital is flat for the time being..." Dr. Wang said first. "I won''t know until the liquidation. I''ll call you if there''s any problem." Jane Mo listened and nodded. "I may be leaving these two days..." she paused. "My mother has left. I''m going to study architectural design at the University of London. So, what''s the trouble, Dr. Wang told me." As soon as Dr. Wang heard this, he was happy for Jane Mo, "all the unhappiness will pass... Everything will be all right." "Yes!" Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth and stood up, "Doctor Wang, I''ll go first." "Good!" Dr. Wang also got up and sent Jane Mo to the door of the office. Then he said with a smile, "little Jane, it''s your happiness to have a man who silently supports you. Come on." Jane Mo listened and thought that Dr. Wang said Su Junli without explanation. She just smiled and nodded, turned and left After she left, Dr. Wang went to the nurse station, "settle and verify all the expenses of Sumer and give it to me..." In any case, although her husband has been with Jane Mo, it can be said clearly about the cost... And then the special fund was withdrawn. "Doctor Wang," said the nurse suddenly, "is the man who accompanied Jane mo before her husband?" Dr. Wang smiled, "almost..." "Tut Tut, you are handsome and considerate..." the nurse sighed. Dr. Wang nodded approvingly and then turned back to the office. At the right time, two nurses entered the nurse station, "who are you talking about?" "Jane Mo''s husband!" "Eh, has her husband been here?" "Yes... I saw it. I stayed with Sumer all night... He''s doing all the following things!" Said the nurse. "You mean Su Junli, who plays the piano and can make people pregnant?" One of the nurses stared in amazement, "is he Jane Mo''s husband?" "Ah? Is he su Junli?" The former nurse was surprised, "but Dr. Wang acquiesced, shouldn''t he?" As soon as several nurses listened, they were stunned, so... However, we didn''t think much, but we just felt that it was not easy for Jane Mo to take care of such a man in the future, which was very good! After leaving the hospital, Jane Mo stood on the steps and looked at the afterglow of the sunset. She took a deep breath, as if she didn''t know... Because of everyone''s own instinctive ideas, her life turned a tortuous corner, but she also achieved her future. As soon as Jane Mo got on the bus, her mobile phone rang. Because there was no expectation, she calmed down now Seeing that it was Su Jun Li, Jane Mo raised her lip and put it in her ear, "Jun Li..." "Well, I''m afraid some people will forget to invite me to dinner. I automatically set up a manual reminder!" Su Junli''s soft voice came with a warm smile. Jane Mo couldn''t help laughing, "what are you going to eat?" "Afraid of inconvenience?" Su Junli asked. Jian Mo is now a divorced person and has nothing to take into account. "It''s good if you don''t feel inconvenient..." "And how can you feel inconvenient?" Su Junli whispered with a smile. "Huh?" Jane Mo frowned without hearing clearly. Su Junli smiled, "anyway, there are so many scandals, don''t mind..." he was still half joking, "I''ll pick you up. Are you in the company or Runze park?" Jane Mo said, "I''m in the hospital now. I''ll go back to Runze garden first." "OK, I''ll wait for you by the side of the road." Su Jun said softly. Jane Mo hung up the phone after answering the voice, started the car and went back to runzeyuan to change clothes... However, when standing in the house, she subconsciously looked at the place of the sofa. In front of us, it was like the image shot by the delivery instrument. Gu Beichen''s cold face gently made people unable to hear the voice of emotion, and echoed in the space in a low and charming way. Two years ha-ha! Jane Mo hooked her lips and smiled. Then she turned and went to the bedroom to change her clothes. Everything was clean when she turned around in the morning... From then on, she had nothing to do with Gu Beichen. And here... Jane Mo held the doorknob and looked around the house, then turned and closed the door. Here, after she left... It has nothing to do with her. ¡­¡­ Miss Xiao Chen said, "everything will be ready for you, and then she''ll lick your face. Miss Xiao Chen will be ready to marry you!" Gu Beichen looked at him coldly, hummed, and then said, "if there''s any mistake in the middle, you''re dead!" Xiao Jing accompanied him with a smile, but in his heart, Gu Beichen was disgusted: a leader of one of the world''s top large groups, like an adolescent boy, what fireworks are you doing? Childish! "Chen Shao, there will be absolutely no mistakes..." Xiao Jing promised, and then laughed. "Now everything is ready, except Miss Jane..." Chapter 203 Speaking of Jian Mo, Gu Beichen couldn''t help but frown slightly and invisibly. He took out his mobile phone and looked again to make sure that Jian Mo really didn''t give him back information. He couldn''t help but get his ink pupil deep. Gu Beichen is hesitant and doesn''t know whether Jian Mo has received the message... What if there is an accident? Thought he was joking about dinner this morning? Think about it, Gu Beichen decided to give Jian Mo another confirmation... Then he sent a message again. After sending it, he waited for ten minutes and didn''t see Jian Mo''s reply. Gu Beichen was a little breathless Look at the time. It''s six o''clock! Gu beichenjun''s face was cloudy. No matter whether he didn''t see the text message or something, he simply decided to call and ask For a whole day, he went to the company in the morning to deal with the follow-up problems of JK, and then prepared all for tonight. If the heroine doesn''t arrive Gu Beichen thought of this, and his face was already dark. Call up Jian Mo''s number and haven''t pressed the send button yet. Suddenly Xiao Jing hurried over with his mobile phone "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing''s tone was strange. Gu Beichen glances at Xiao Jing, who has handed his mobile phone to him On the news, the headline reads: Su Junli is suspected to be married and the object is rumored girlfriend Jane Mo! Xiao Jing swallowed secretly, then looked at Gu Beichen with his heart in his throat and said, "well... Chen Shao, you... Can see the following... Report..." he hesitated, then paid attention to the mobile phone in Gu Beichen''s hand, mourned for his mobile phone in advance, and felt that he had to buy a new mobile phone later. Gu Beichen glanced at Xiao Jing and then looked down at the report with a slight movement of his fingers There is only one theme in the content of the report, that is, it has always been thought that Su Junli and Jian Mo are rumors. In fact, they have been married for a long time... This news is very reliable and confirmed. This is nothing... After all, Gu Beichen knows better than anyone whether they are married or not. However, when Gu Beichen saw the latest leaked photos, the whole person was filled with a sense of horror. It''s a western restaurant with a high style. Jian Mo and Su Jun sit away from the window Jian Mo smiled between her eyebrows and eyes, and looked at Su Junli with a little woman''s posture... In that way, you can have as much tenderness as you want. The sound of "quack" came from the mobile phone, and Xiao Jing swallowed it secretly. Chen spent less time waiting for her proposal in the evening... That''s good. Everything is ready for the heroine, but the heroine ran into the arms of another man! "Chen Shao, maybe..." Xiao Jing said hard, "is it a misunderstanding?" "Misunderstanding?" Gu Beichen hissed softly, and the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly. He was even more depressed when he thought of Jian Mo''s indifferent happy appearance when signing the divorce agreement in the morning. This woman was eager to divorce him for a long time. Now he just gave her the chance to live and fly with Su Jun, didn''t he? Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth and wanted to say something, but finally found that nothing to say at the moment could comfort him... Instead, it was like mocking everything Chen did less today! Wangjiang building was rented. At the moment, Gu Beichen gradually filled the huge restaurant with a depressed atmosphere, as if even the air gradually became thinner It''s gloomy here, but Su Junli and Jian Mo are rarely relaxed. "What are your plans next?" After carefully cutting the steak, Su Junli handed Jian Mo his plate and took her. Jian Mo''s character is not coy. She used to be indifferent when she went to school. Later, she learned an indifferent skill with Gu Beichen, "I''ll go to England these two days..." Su Junli looked at Jian Mo softly, "UCL?" He gave a voice of doubt. Jane Mo smiled and nodded, "yes... Originally, she planned to apply as soon as she graduated. But later, because of something, first, she was delayed, and second, she didn''t come up with a good work application." Su Jun left his drooping eyes and meditated slightly. Then he raised his eyes and asked, "when are you going to leave?" He smiled. "Maybe we can still be together?" Jane Mo was surprised. "Are you going to London, too?" Su Junli nodded with a smile. "Well, there''s a concert going there next month... There''s something else to deal with. I was going to go there soon." What he said was calm and serious, so that people can''t understand whether what he said is true or false. Jane Mo always felt a little too coincidental, but she didn''t think much and said, "I''m going to have dinner with my colleagues tomorrow. There''s no accident... I''ll leave the day after tomorrow." Los Angeles doesn''t have much nostalgia. She urgently needs to leave this sad place to heal... When all the wounds are healed and she is still her... She will face here! "Let''s go together," said Su Junli. "It''s not bad anyway." Jane nodded, smiled and said, "it''s good to be together. It''s lonely to save such a long distance." Su Jun left with a smile, and his eyes looked at Jian Mo and became more tender She divorced Gu Beichen, so he can accompany her on the next road... Until she can accept him! At night, people will always be lost and confused. In this early winter night, you can precipitate yourself or let yourself fall Don''t drink wine in silence at night. Long Xiao and Li Yunze didn''t expect that before and after long, they first witnessed Lin Nannan''s proposal to Su Xiaoxiao, and the heroine didn''t show up... And then witnessed two "events" in which Gu Beichen wanted to propose and the heroine ignored! "Alas, he''s like this... Harder to deal with than going south?" Li Yunze leaned on the bar with his arms around his chest and looked at Gu Beichen. The Dragon owl grabbed the wine glass with his slender fingers. The black pupil looked at the shaking wine deeply and said faintly: "die!" Li Yunze smiled, "boss long, you''re right..." he looked at Gu Beichen, who was drinking muggy wine there, and then deliberately amplified his voice. "Beichen, he has to divorce first and then propose... Well, as soon as his wife is free, she''s out of control?" Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze with a sharp look. Li Yunze was not afraid of him and continued to say with a smile, "you''re called... Nozuonodie! Well, yes, that''s what boss long said to die!" Gu Beichen narrowed his eyes slightly, and the cold breath coagulated on his cold face. It was like the cold wind outside, which was frozen into people''s bones. Li Yunze grinned secretly and couldn''t help but feel disgusted: shit, no wonder Xiao Jinglao complains that Beichen''s eyes can kill people "It''s better to go to the front of Jane Mo!" The Dragon owl said indifferently, "since you can''t let go, go and ask." Li Yunze quickly echoed, "yes!" Gu Beichen sipped lightly on one side of his thin lip, his eyes were deep, put down his glass and got up... He walked out without any stop! Chapter 204 Under the neon night, a BMW X6M galloped through the streets of Los Angeles like a flying dragon "Didi, Didi -" Because the speed of BMW is too fast, many cars are dissatisfied with the whistle, but it seems that the car doesn''t mean to slow down at all. Chu Zixiao looked coldly through the windshield at the front. The steering wheel was like a flexible track in his hand, without any deviation. "Squeak -" The harsh brake sound stopped in front of the western restaurant. Chu Zixiao looked at the western restaurant. This is the restaurant mentioned in the news! Taking back his sight, Chu Zixiao untied his seat belt, opened the door and got off, and then wanted to go inside But before they got to the door, they saw Su Junli and Jian Mo coming out together Jane Mo didn''t expect to meet Chu Zixiao here. She was slightly stunned. Then she greeted Su Junli with a faint smile. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were slightly deep. He first looked at Su Junli, and then his eyes fell on Jian mo... there was a gloomy breath in his chest, which made him about to explode. In the depths of his eyes, there was a magma that seemed to burst, which wanted to burn him. Su Jun frowned slightly and stood side by side with Jian Mo, with a calm and gentle expression: "is Chu Shao coming to dinner?" Chu Zixiao looked at Su Junli again, ignored Jian Mo, and just asked, "what''s the relationship between you and him?" Jane Mo frowned slightly and then calmed down. "Whatever relationship you think it is, it''s ok..." she smiled and smiled, and her face didn''t matter. "I think?" Chu Zixiao said, "Mo Mo, why don''t I know? When did you get married with Su family San Shao?" Jane Mo slipped a touch of surprise at the bottom of her eyes, but she soon disappeared. Although I don''t know what Chu Zixiao meant by this, Jian Mo estimated that it was gossip "It seems..." Jian Mo said faintly, "what does Jun Li and I have to do with you?" Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo and didn''t mean to refute at all. He even readily admitted that he was angry, "Jian Mo, aren''t you married to Beichen?" He gritted his teeth and asked, "how did you get married with Su Jun?" Jian Mo smiled and smiled more brightly, "sorry... Gu Beichen and I divorced! So even if it''s your famous argument, I''m afraid I can''t say I''m bigamy!" Chu Zixiao immediately widened his eyes, "have you divorced Beichen?" "Yes!" Jane Mo''s smiling face is relaxed, so that people can''t see her sadness. "Why don''t I know when it happened?" Chu Zixiao suddenly felt like a fool. He has been using the emperor''s shares to force Beichen and Momo to divorce. However, they divorced, but he doesn''t know? Su Jun Li frowned secretly and was dissatisfied with Chu Zixiao''s question... But there was nothing on his face. As the position of "love enemy", what he needs to do at this time is that foam needs him, and he will stand up without hesitation! Jane Mo smiled, "morning..." her face didn''t matter, there was no greed. "Divorce in the morning, and then you can''t wait to leave Su Jun?" Chu Zixiao was angry, "what about me? Jian mo... What about me? What am I? What am I when I''ve been waiting?" Jian Mo is really glad that this is a high-grade place. There is no one in the parking lot at the door except cars. "I''ve wanted to be with Jun for a long time... But I can''t leave Gu Beichen. I still have a bit of marriage morality..." Jian Mo smiled enchanting and charming, especially charming under the neon. "Now I''m finally divorced, of course I can''t wait..." Su Junli smiled, raised his eyebrows slightly and said in due time, "I''m glad to wait for her." Jian Mo felt guilty about Su Junli, but since she was leaving, let Chu Zixiao completely forget about her. Thinking like this, Jian Mo has already circled Su Junli''s arm, "Zixiao, people''s feelings will become..." "Why him?" Chu Zixiao gritted his teeth and asked, what''s the difference between himself and the clown now? Jane Mo smiled calmly, "because I love him!" Chu Zixiao listened and stepped back I broke up with him because I didn''t love him! I left Su Jun because I love him! Hehe "Jane Mo, you are so cruel to me..." Chu Zixiao was completely disappointed. "Once it couldn''t reach the present, right?" "Yes!" Jane Mo said more firmly. Gu Beichen tried to have a muddy feeling on her. She can''t let Chu Zixiao fall on her "Chu Shao," Su Junli said at the right time, "feelings have passed away. At most, they are just a little star in the long river of memory. They are touching, but they will not become eternal. I hope Chu Shao can treat them rationally. After all..." he paused, slowly and gently looked at Jian Mo and said, "Mo Mo is my wife now!" What he said was extremely natural and even full of tenderness Jian Mo subconsciously looks at Su Junli. She gives up for Chu Zixiao, but... How does Su Junli Su Junli just stared at Jian Mo deeply and smiled softly. His eyes conveyed such a message: I helped you again. It seems... Today''s meal is not counted! After Jane Mo received it, she couldn''t help laughing... Because she was amused, she was especially at ease. And such a smile from the heart fell into Chu Zixiao''s eyes, especially dazzling... Fell into Gu Beichen''s eyes, full of ridicule. Turning around, the cold wind dissipated all the wine. Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen who turned and left, and then at Jian mo... He couldn''t help frowning. It''s said that Jian Mo and Su Jun got married. Who didn''t take it seriously... Obviously, they were wishful thinking. Li Yunze was worried about Gu Beichen''s accident, and he was not in the mood to pay attention to Chu Zixiao, Jian Mo and Su Jun. he turned and chased Gu Beichen. "Beichen..." Li Yunze shouted anxiously. Gu Beichen got into the car and looked out of the window with a self mockery on his thin lips. "I really killed myself... Gave her a chance!" Li Yunze frowned slightly. "It''s possible..." he grinned. "It''s possible that Jian Mo is to annoy Zixiao?" "Yunze..." Gu Beichen was tired and lay back on the seat, with eagle eyes slightly narrowed down in front, "you can''t believe this." His voice was full of loneliness, which made people frown. Li Yunze sighed darkly. The way Jian Mo and Su Jun left just now is not like acting If the two of them are deliberately angry, their acting skills should not be developed in piano and design, and directly enter the Oscars. "Let''s go..." Gu Beichen''s voice was a little dull and speechless. Sometimes the man needs to lick the wound, but sometimes he needs to hide it. After starting the car, Li Yunze looked at Beichen and divided the car into the traffic flow The street lights are dim, but the lights are dazzling. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s happy smile through the window, and his heart sank more and more Chapter 205 The car passed by Jian Mo slowly. From beginning to end, she didn''t know that Gu Beichen had come for her! In the reversing mirror, Jian Mo''s figure is getting smaller and smaller, and Gu Beichen''s line of sight is getting deeper and deeper At the end of the deep, the star point figure of Jian Mo is turned into the deepest part of my heart, which is inserted there like a needle... It will hurt if you pull it out, and it will be integrated into bone and blood if you don''t pull it out! Heaven night is still in the "private show". Gu Beichen is drinking wine while looking at everything he has arranged himself. He feels particularly ridiculous and ironic. If Li Yunze could laugh at Gu Beichen at that time, he really couldn''t bear it now Although brothers are used to lose, it''s really pathetic to see that brothers are abandoned by women. "What''s going on?" The Dragon owl frowned and asked. Gu Beichen has never lost self-control like this since he experienced that thing Li Yunze told Gu Beichen what he had just been looking for Jian Mo, and then sighed: "emotional things can''t be hot... Since Jian Mo is separated from Su Jun, it''s not good for Beichen to intervene any more." The Dragon owl sank his face, "deserved it!" Li Yunze grinned. "I deserve it... Just say no directly. What''s the romantic request for marriage?" The Dragon owl didn''t speak, just put down his glass and said, "look at him, don''t let him smash me here..." "Can''t see!" Li Yunze tells the truth. He is a civilized man and Gu Beichen is a local tyrant. Anyway, he will only watch him smash! However, Li Yunze and long Xiao are obviously worried about being oiled... Because Gu Beichen''s self-control is still very good, which is embodied in a person drinking muggy wine and trying to become a wine fairy. ¡­¡­ Su Junli sent Jian Mo back to Runze garden and then returned to Su''s manor. On the way back, Zhuang Bo had called him to inform him... So when he saw that the light of the main house was still on, he couldn''t help sighing. "Grandpa..." Su Junli shouted. Su Zhenqi said calmly, "can you explain to me... Why are you married? Don''t we know?" After separating from Chu Zixiao, Jian Mo has read the news on the Internet and said they can''t cry or laugh about the "insider". "Grandpa, that''s gossip!" Su Jun sat down and said. "Hum! It''s gossip every time..." Su Zhen said coldly, "isn''t that what you think?" Su Jun left and sighed quietly. He didn''t want to be angry with Grandpa. He just said, "Grandpa, the British side invited me to teach. I''m going to go and have a look the day after tomorrow..." Being a professor in a famous school is also an honor. For a music family like the Su family, it is willing. "Don''t change the subject for me..." Su Zhenqi said with a beard and eyes. Su Junli smiled, "you still have to find anger when I change the topic?" He teased, and then said seriously, "Grandpa, dad and mom''s original marriage has come to the present. You can see what''s going on... Can I choose my own future?" In a word, Su Zhenqi choked and couldn''t speak out In this life, he just let Haoyuan and a ting together, and then made it like this. It has become a handle for a Li boy to hold him. "It''s getting late, Grandpa, go to bed early..." Su Junli got up with a smile and kissed Su Zhenqi on his face. "I''ll leave the day after tomorrow. I''ll deal with things here tomorrow. If you''re still angry with me, I won''t come back?" Half threatening and half joking, Su Jun turned and wanted to go upstairs "Smelly boy, do you want to piss me off?" Su Zhenqi turned and roared at Su Junli. Su Junli turned around, but didn''t stop. He just smiled and blew Su Zhenqi a kiss, "Grandpa, good night!" Su Zhenqi was angry and spoiled and smiled. After all, there was still no way to deal with the grandson. Su''s house is peaceful, but Shen''s villa is gloomy at the moment. "Want your mother to go back to Shen''s house?" Shen hang sniffed coldly, "Shen Chu, this is what you told me. Can you guarantee JK? You didn''t do it, but you still want me to fulfill my promise? It''s just a dream." Shen Chu suddenly clenched his hand, pursed his lips and bit his teeth, "you said that when I came back, I would let my mother come back..." "You know what I want you to come back for, but in the end?" Shen hang sneered, "Xiao Chu, there''s always a reason for your mother to enter Shen''s house, isn''t there?" For Shen Hangzhi''s turning away, Shen Chu had expected that everything was going well. It was Jian mo... If it weren''t for her, Beichen wouldn''t treat her like this! Shen Chu looked at Shen Hangzhi with hate, then turned and left The car was driving madly in the early winter night. Shen Chu didn''t know how to vent the depression accumulated in his heart and kept stepping on the accelerator. "Squeak -" The screeching sound of brakes echoed along the river in Los Angeles. Shen Chu got out of the car. The cold wind came from the mat in time, some biting. Shen Chu clenched his hands, and his mind was full of Gu Beichen''s indifferent sight in the imperial conference room yesterday The eyes narrowed slowly, and Shen Chu''s eyes emitted two cold lights, "I''m not easy, Jane mo... I won''t let you live!" Shen Chu returned to the car, took his cell phone out and dialed a group of numbers. "Release those messages... I''ll send you the picture of the first draft when the emperor compares the draft later." The man listened, answered and said that he would publish the news in the evening. Shen Chu answered the voice and hung up the phone. The turbidity in his eyes became heavier and heavier. After Shen Chu sent the picture and design drawing of the first comparison, the man called Xiao Jing and dialed, "Xiao tezhu, that... The other party asked me to send a message again... Yes, it''s the one who compared the draft in the club... Of course not. Didn''t I call you first?" He grinned. "Although we are eccentric, we also have to spend money, don''t we?" Xiao Jing listened, answered, and then said, "are you interested in following me?" When the man heard this, he was stunned, and then asked, "into the emperor?" His eyes lit up when he asked. "You think too much..." Xiao Jing said faintly, "just follow me and work for Chen Shaoer, that''s all!" The man is a little lost, but it''s better to think about it than to spend every day looking for the wrong door. He immediately agreed... After all, Gu Beichen is a big tree. After Xiao Jing hung up the phone, his eyes were cold Smart women should leave indelible good in men''s hearts, just like Jane foam. Shen Chu can make Chen Shao feel guilty about her, but... She''s consuming herself. Xiao jingleng hissed and then called Gu Beichen... But the phone rang for a long time and no one answered! Gu Beichen was held by Li Yunze and thrown into the lounge of heaven night. Panting, he rolled his eyes, then turned off the light and left the room "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen was already drunk and unconscious. There was a sad condensation on Jun''s face. His thin lips overflowed under the black silence, and the pain was so painful that he grabbed his heart. Chapter 206 The next day, the temperature in Los Angeles began to warm up, and the sunshine was particularly good early in the morning. Jane Mo got up to wash, then went to the kitchen to give herself and the milk bag to get something to eat. Since the accident of Jane''s family, she has never been as relaxed and comfortable as she is today... She doesn''t have to think about her mother''s illness and money in order to please Gu Beichen. When the sweet piano music came, Jane Mo took her mobile phone and saw that it was Li Xiaoyue, she couldn''t help laughing, "Xiao Yue?" "Girl, are you ready?" Li Xiaoyue asked, "everything is ready. I''ll go there at noon." "All packed up..." Jane Mo said faintly. Everything here doesn''t belong to her, and she can''t take much. ¡°OK£¡¡± Li Xiaoyue answered and said, "I''ll deal with a record first and have lunch together at noon." "Well, good!" Jane answered and hung up. Boiled porridge, boiled eggs, heated milk For the nutritious breakfast, Jane Mo didn''t want to make do with the milk bag in her stomach. Jane Mo opened the light shield, and suddenly... The early morning sunshine refracted down, leaving the room full of sunshine While eating breakfast and brushing the web page, Jian Mo couldn''t help laughing at the fact that she and Su Jun were divorced and married. Just, remembering that Chu Zixiao questioned her last night, she couldn''t help sighing. Close the web page and open the SMS Seeing that one of the messages from Mr. g didn''t see it... Jane Mo curled her mouth and opened it. It was still about eating. She couldn''t help humming. "Why don''t you go to eat with Shen Chu when you like to eat dinner together?" Jane Mo snorted, and suddenly lost her mood. Put out the mobile phone, cleaned up the dishes and chopsticks, and Jane Mo took this design book and read it on the recliner Easy time always passes quickly, and it''s noon in the twinkling of an eye. "Girl, just one box and two boxes of books?" Li Xiaoyue asked with a bad smile, "I think it''s better to take all the valuable things here... Anyway, don''t take it for nothing!" "Such hanging silk temperament is not suitable for me..." Jane Mo looked proud. "Yes... I''ll hang the wire, you''re tall!" Li Xiaoyue smiled, "so, can the tall designer go?" Jane Mo looked around the bedroom. Finally, she went to the place of the cabinet and opened the drawer with jewelry Take out the jewelry box with the word "magic" and open it... What catches the eye is the set of "falling in love" designed by her. Jian Mo''s fingers gently outlined the surface of the jewelry, and a thin smile gradually overflowed from the corners of her mouth: Thank you for accompanying me through the most difficult two years. I will remember the anniversary of next year''s meeting... But I won''t spend it with you! Jian Mo took a deep breath, then closed the jewelry box, put it back in the drawer, closed the cabinet door, turned and walked out All her movements were done at one go without any pause. When she turns around, it''s as if she''s going to put down all the new journey. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen only felt that there seemed to be a shot put rolling back and forth in his head. He felt that his head was not his own. "Awake?" The Dragon owl opened his mouth lightly and then put a cup of tea in front of him. Gu Beichen rubbed his temples and drank tea. His whole expression was haggard and lonely. "I drank three bottles of Latour, two bottles of Lafite and one bottle of Ausone yesterday..." the Dragon owl said coldly, "the total price is 2.82 million! The change is erased. Remember to write me a check for 2.8 million back." "..." Gu Beichen looked at the Dragon owl with a gloomy face. Because of the sequelae of drinking, he said hoarsely, "boss long, do you still have compassion?" "No!" The Dragon owl is still indifferent. Gu Beichen sighed heavily and didn''t say anything more In fact, millions are nothing to them at all, but their mode of exchanging feelings and concerns has become such a treacherous way. "When Yunze left, he said that your mobile phone was ringing all the time. See if there were any important omissions..." the Dragon owl said and turned around, "I have something to do. I won''t go back to Los Angeles for some time." After that, he was out of the lounge. Gu Beichen ignored the Dragon owl. It''s not the first time he''s not in Los Angeles occasionally. He''s not curious... Instead, he''s curious if Jane Mo will call him. But obviously... He''s too extravagant! Gu Beichen rubbed his swollen head and felt that he was the most childish one Is he lovelorn and drunk? After looking at the circle, Gu Beichen didn''t answer the call. Gu Beichen''s eyes fell deeply on Shen Chu... Just, after looking at it for a while, thin lips scratched a mockery. But I don''t know whether to laugh at myself or what Gu Beichen directly ignored all the calls and only called Xiao Jing back. "God, Chen Shao, are you finally awake?" Xiao Jing was dissatisfied. He kept calling and no one answered. In the end, he had no choice but to call boss long. Only then did he know that his Chen Shao was drunk in the end? What is this concept? Die Of course, he didn''t dare to say that, otherwise... The precipice is a discouraged gun handle for Chen Shao. "What''s up?" Gu Beichen closed his eyes because of a headache and bad breath. Xiao Jingqing cleared his throat and asked solemnly, "do you want to listen to private or business first?" "I want to hear how you want to die first?" Gu Beichen''s voice was so cold that there was no trace of temperature. ¡­¡­ When Shen Chu waited until 5 p.m., he saw no news from the major networks and media. He couldn''t help but sink his face. At that time, he called the man who released the news... But no one answered. Shen chuleng hum, "take my money and want to swallow it like this?" With a cold hiss, she drove directly to the tube building. "Bang bang!" There was an angry knock on the door. Shen Chu had been angry for two days. Now, seeing this little man against her, you can imagine how angry he was Seeing that no one opened the door, Shen Chu was ready to raise his hand and knock on the door... At the right time, the door was suddenly opened. "I thought you were dead?" Shen Chu looked at the man and hissed coldly, "I''m thinking, if so... I''ll take the money as your burial expenses." The man looked at Shen Chu and sneered, "I won''t send the news. I''ll give you the money!" Words fall, people have turned back to the house. Shen Chu was stunned. Obviously, he didn''t expect this person to say so. While following in, he said, "you took my money, no news..." Suddenly, Shen Chu''s words stopped... She stared at Gu Beichen, who took his pocket with both hands and turned slowly, and her pupils widened. Gu Beichen''s cold face was so indifferent, but his eagle eyes looked at Shen Chu with complete disappointment, "you know? How I don''t want to see you here..." his voice was full of disappointment, "you haven''t seriously thought about what I said to you the day before yesterday! You have disappointed me..." Chapter 207 Shen Chu didn''t speak, but tightly pursed his lips and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was getting deeper and deeper, as if a cold air overflowed from the abyss, "didn''t... You ever think about why Jianmo''s design would change?" "Because you changed it..." Shen Chu gritted his teeth. When Gu Beichen heard Shen Chu say this, he suddenly felt that he had really come back and had never known Shen Chu... He thought she was simple, enthusiastic, and even full of strength. But what? Her behavior disappointed him. Even her speculation made him think how ridiculous he thought before! "Until now, you have been stubborn..." Gu Beichen''s voice has been cold without a trace of temperature. "Design, I have not participated in any... This is not only a matter of principle, but also an insult to Jian mo." After a pause, Gu Beichen''s thin lips slightly scratched and sneered, "apart from all relationships, we all came out of UCL. We know very well... Jane Mo''s talent she can do it!" Shen Chu''s fist began to tremble, but she tried her best to bear it "The design can be changed, even... What I said to you the day before yesterday. Shen Chu, have you seriously thought about it?" Gu Beichen gritted his teeth. "If you had thought about it, you wouldn''t be here today... If you had thought about it, you might still leave a beautiful past in my heart." Gu beichenjun''s face became cold, "but you have to pull everything away..." "Gu Beichen, why do you say that about me?" Shen Chu widened his eyes. "Is it who you think is good?" She roared with a ferocious face. Gu Beichen saw that even now, Shen Chu still put the responsibility on others. He was unable to say anything more Think what she wants! Turning around, Gu Beichen had a terrible headache because of his hangover, and because of his stupidity, he personally sent Jian Mo to other men. He was powerless... At this moment, Shen Chu''s attitude completely emptied his last nerve. Xiao Jing and the man have been silent, just standing quietly aside Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen with disappointment. Finally, she cried, "what am I doing all this for... Who was born to want to be the bad guy? Gu Beichen, you never understand..." Gu Beichen sighed, "I don''t understand, but I also know that a person can choose... Some people choose to hurt others to achieve themselves. Others......" his eyes turned into pain, "choose to hurt themselves to achieve others." And Jane Mo is the latter But he was so proud that he didn''t know when he had lost it! However, everyone has to bear for his own behavior, just like Shen Chu... So does he! The night in Los Angeles is charming and beautiful, so it is most appropriate to indulge and say goodbye on this night Jane Mo invited everyone to dinner at Sofia Hotel because everything began to change from here two years ago... She wants to leave here. When she comes back here again, she can face everything calmly! "Sister Mo, I can''t bear you..." he muttered to the night, pursed his mouth slightly and looked at Jane Mo with red eyes. Jane Mo smiled. "Silly girl, it''s not goodbye..." she stared coyly. "Don''t make me look like I''m gone forever. You''re willing. I''m not willing to go back." Then she looked at Yu Ziyun, "right, Mr. Yu?" "Of course..." before Yu Ziyun spoke, Tang Haoyang opened his mouth, and then joked about the old disrespect. "If you don''t come back, it''s estimated that Yu and Xiaojing will compete again. Who can save the scene?" "Ha ha..." Tang Haoyang''s words immediately caused a burst of laughter. Luo Xiaojing couldn''t help hissing angrily. She didn''t mind joking with herself at all. "You know what I don''t like about you?" Luo Xiaojing asked Yu Ziyun. Yu Ziyun said directly, "of course, I''m handsome, rich and charming..." "I think you are shameless!" Luo Xiaojing turned her eyes without any face. Seeing Yu Ziyun and everyone laughing, she said seriously, "I like you. You can find everyone''s value... Otherwise, you can''t find my cow. I like you?" Luo Xiaojing is a big strong woman. She is very heroic and doesn''t have a cover up However, Yu Ziyun just likes her directness, so that in order to attract her attention, he has worked against her for many years, but he has got it. Jane Mo looked at the two people with envy in her eyes... It''s good to see them. She felt she believed in love again. "What do you envy, Mo Mo?" Ding Dang raised his eyebrow and entered the gossip state. "Don''t you have a su family three young? Huh?" Jian Mo looked at the crowd and raised his ears, some crying and laughing, "you believe those gossip. Why do I say I''m Gu Beichen''s wife? No one believes you?" As soon as they heard this, they threw their mouths and said at the same time, "foam, you are not kind!" Jian Mo smiled and didn''t explain. They continued to eat, drink and have fun as if nothing had happened... Of course, the final account was not paid by Jian Mo, but Yu Ziyun. He said: Jane Mo, I''ll wait for you to come back and tell everyone that you... Are the best! When the crowd left, the night was already very deep, almost zero. Jane Mo didn''t go home directly, but walked slowly along the river of Los Angeles and felt the night of Los Angeles I''m leaving tomorrow morning. I don''t know what will happen here in four or five years? "Boom -" "Ka!" Suddenly, there was a sound. Suddenly, the ink space was stained by colorful fireworks as if it were day. Jane Mo stopped, and the people who were still traveling at night stopped one after another, looking up at the fireworks that had been blooming in the ink sky The corners of her mouth couldn''t help laughing. Jian Mo looked at the beautiful fireworks and said silently to the milk bag in her stomach that couldn''t communicate with her: a person''s fireworks can brighten the hearts of many people... Baby, just take this fireworks as a parting gift he gave us, okay? Gu Beichen sat by the riverside of Los Angeles, letting the cold river wind blow his face... His cold, carved handsome face has not changed at all. He looked up slightly at the fireworks in the night sky, which should have been put after proposing to Mo''er yesterday, but now he was enjoying it here alone. Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently mocked himself, and finally completely turned into deep pain, fainting in the depths of the ink pupil The interest of this love starts and ends suddenly... It''s like a dream, which can be recalled but can''t be grasped! Jane Mo put her hand gently on her lower abdomen, smiled at the colorful fireworks... At this moment, everything has been relieved! Fireworks keep exploding in the night sky, on and under a bridge Two people, two hearts... At this moment, obviously close at hand, but far away Gu Beichen was still sitting by the river. When a newly exploded fireworks lit up the night sky, Jian Mo put down his hand and turned around. Bye, Los Angeles! Goodbye... Gu Beichen! Chapter 208 Early in the morning, when the dawn is still lazily hiding behind the thick clouds, Jane Mo has packed up her things. Li Xiaoyue pursed her lower lip, looked at Jian Mo and hugged her tightly. "Girl, remember to call me whenever you are happy or unhappy... Huh?" Jane Mo smiled, "it''s necessary... Or does your best friend cheat?" After a pause, she said a little sadly, "you too!" "Nature..." Li Xiaoyue covered up her sadness of parting and released Jian Mo with a smile. "I''ll take you to the airport!" Jane nodded and walked out of the apartment with Li Xiaoyue At the right time, the mobile phone rings. Jane Mo stopped, took out her mobile phone and looked at it. She saw that it was a strange number and wondered if it would be from the hospital... She quickly picked it up. "Xiaomo, I''m outside your apartment. Give me 100000!" On the phone, there was an anxious voice from Jane stringer. It felt as if she could get as much as she said. "Do you think I''m an ATM?" Jane Mo''s face became cold in an instant. "Jane truss, I won''t give you another penny!" "If you don''t give it to me, I''ll go to Gu Beichen..." Jian Heng''s voice was a little sharp. Jane Mo sniffed coldly, "if you want to find someone... If you want to die, die! Jane Chang, tell anyone you want to tell about two years ago, even if... You put an advertisement in the newspaper! In the future, I won''t give you a penny... Last time I said, I don''t have your brother anymore!" After that, Jian Mo hung up the phone directly, and then sent a text message to Su Junli, saying that after waiting for him at the airport, he turned off the plane. Jian Mo didn''t tell Jian Heng about his mother''s death... I''m afraid he had only money in his heart at the moment. Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo with a solemn face and pulled her hand. "Everything will be all right..." Jane Mo smiled bitterly, didn''t speak, just pulled the salute and walked out Nothing can threaten her anymore, no more! "For flight za739555 to London, please go to gate 24 to wait..." a sweet prompt from the ground service staff came from Los Angeles International Airport. Su Junli and Jian Mo changed their boarding passes, checked their luggage and lined up to pass the Customs together. The plane will take off in less than two hours, because the time is not very rush. After they passed the customs, they went directly to the VIP cafe. "What mood?" Su Jun left a warm smile and looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. Jian Mo looked at the milk tea, sipped her lower lip, then smiled and looked up and said, "I''m very excited... It''s like my wish for many years is about to come true. That feeling can''t be replaced by other happy things." Then she raised her eyebrows, "besides, I''d better buy one for one, and I''ll be more happy." Su Junli was relieved to see that Jian Mo was wearing light clothes without any burden. "Will he be a small architect back?" "It doesn''t matter..." Jian Mo shrugged. "What does the milk bag like? I won''t intervene. I can guide at most." Su Jun smiled and agreed with Jian Mo''s idea Times are different. Parents can''t always think about controlling their children''s life. As long as the guidance is in the right direction, no matter bumpy or smooth, they should let them go by themselves! Su Junli is a master of psychology. Generally speaking, he is not tired when chatting with such people, and he can even guide him easily A little bit of time has passed, perhaps because the mood is different, and even waiting has become a kind of enjoyment. However, at this moment, some people are suffering. Because Gu Beichen didn''t go to the company to deal with the documents for two days, the documents held by Susan early this morning were piled up so that people couldn''t see them. Gu Beichen is busy, and Xiao Jing, the special assistant, is no better Just when I was busy, the mobile phone was'' buzzing ''on the table. Xiao Jing took his cell phone, looked at it and saw that it was Dr. Wang from Shuya hospital. He suddenly remembered... When he came back from the United States, Chen Shao asked him to ask about Su Mo''s condition. He was busy and disorderly these two days, which was delayed. "Hello, Dr. Wang!" Dr. Wang looked at the quotation and said, "Hello! The quotation about Ms. Su has been issued, all expenses have been calculated clearly, and the special fund account has been stopped at the hospital for the time being... You see, when you are free, come to the hospital to handle it..." "Frown, why..." Dr. Wang was stunned and asked subconsciously, "Ms. Su died. Why don''t you stop?" "..." Xiao Jing fanned his eyes and reacted for several seconds before he understood what Dr. Wang said. He couldn''t help but raise his voice, "what are you talking about? Sumer died?" Dr. Wang was stunned. Isn''t Jane Mo''s husband always with him? Why don''t you know about it? "People left half the night before..." Dr. Wang said, "don''t you know?" Xiao Jing''s face was frozen. He breathed heavily. He couldn''t care about anything. He stood up and asked Dr. Wang a few questions while running into Gu Beichen''s office. He even forgot to knock on the door. "Rush to the funeral?" Susan scolded with dissatisfaction on her face. Gu Beichen also raised his head and looked at Xiao Jing with a puzzled frown. Xiao Jing''s face was very bad. Even, the whole look was strange, as if he was tangled, regretful and angry "Say!" Gu Beichen said coldly that a word overflowed his thin lips. Xiao Jing hesitated and just said, "Chen Shao... Su Mo is dead!" Susan frowned, and Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were cold, "when did it happen?" "The night before yesterday!" Xiao Jing''s voice was dignified, "that is, around the early morning of the day when he bought JK shares..." Gu Beichen put down his signature pen, picked up his mobile phone and dialed Jane Mo''s number. However, it prompted that it was turned off. He got up and walked out coldly. Xiao Jing turned and hurried out. "Go to Xiangyu!" Gu Beichen opened his mouth indifferently after getting into the car, but his cold face was frozen. He recalled the day before yesterday In the morning, the acquisition of JK shares reached the control. In the afternoon, deal with follow-up problems... In the evening, go back to Runze garden and wait for Jane mo. she didn''t go home normally, but thought she was working overtime. I was so excited that day that I planned the next day and completely ignored some subtle things If it were normal, he wouldn''t have noticed something wrong with Jane Mo! No, he noticed, but he didn''t think deeply At that time, she was so dependent on him. Why didn''t he think more? Even that day, the media talked nonsense, saying that the original purpose of holding was that he gave up the wholly-owned acquisition for Shen Chu... Did she also hear the news in that case? Gu Beichen is a little upset. He has never hated himself so much for a moment The car stopped in front of Lingyu International Center. Gu Beichen opened the door and got off the car before the car stopped completely. Xiao Jing quickly loosened his seat belt to keep up. Regardless of the sideways gaze of the passers-by, they stepped into the elevator and went to Xiangyu. On the floor of Xiangyu, Gu Beichen came once, so he kept turning to the architectural design department Chapter 209 "Eh, isn''t that Gu Beichen?" Someone whispered. The name "Gu Beichen" was so shocking that immediately, everyone rushed out like looking at orangutans and watched Gu Beichen enter the office area of the design department. Su Ke forgot to react when he saw Gu Beichen. Even the whole design department was shocked to see him Gu Beichen walked to Jian Mo''s office. When he saw something clean and tidy above as if it had been taken away from his body, he raised his eyes and looked at Mo Xiaoya opposite, "where''s Jian Mo?" "Going abroad..." Mo Xiaoya was frightened by Gu Beichen''s momentum and said reflexively, "the morning plane goes to London." Gu Beichen''s thin lips scratched a sneer, "what time is it?" "It seems to be around 10:30..." Mo Xiaoya said. "The details are not clear." Hearing this, Xiao Jing hurried forward, "Chen Shao, there''s still time." Gu Beichen didn''t say anything. He turned and walked out with big steps Tang Haoyang heard that Gu Beichen was coming and hurried out of the office. However, he just brushed past him. Before he could say hello, the man had passed him "God, no, is sister Mo really Gu Beichen''s wife?" Said a sentence to the evening. Suddenly, everyone''s eyes fell on Xiang night, "no?" If so, how much concentration does it take to listen to their gossip about Gu Beichen all day? Even without love, it''s impossible to do this, right? Xiao Jing drove his car to the International Airport. It was already ten o''clock when he arrived at the airport. Xiao Jing and Gu Beichen hurried out of the car. Due to Gu Beichen''s special identity, he has a special VVIP channel at the airport... There is no need to check, but others have passed the pass. "President Gu, can I help you?" Seeing that it was Gu Beichen, the ground crew serving VVIP hurried forward and asked. "For the flight to London, at what gate is the nearest flight?" Xiao Jing asked first. The ground passenger said, "please wait a minute!" Then he took the walkie talkie and asked the front desk. When an answer came from the walkie talkie, Gu Beichen ran to gate 24 without taking the staff''s answer Su Junli and Jian Mo took the lead in preparing for boarding because they were in first class. The ground passenger checked his boarding pass with a smile on his mouth, "welcome to dragon Empire airlines. Have a nice trip!" She handed the boarding pass to Jian Mo and then took Su Jun''s leave. Jian Mo didn''t leave first, but waited for Su Jun to leave and walked to the boarding corridor with him with a smile Gu Beichen''s footsteps stopped slowly, and the eagle''s eyes fell on Jian Mo and Su Jun. Just after seeing their smiling "affectionate" eyes looking at each other, they entered the boarding corridor with each other Xiao Jing looked at the back of the two people who went in and Gu Beichen. He looked a little complicated. Gu Beichen didn''t chase any more, but his sight fell at the entrance of the boarding corridor, even if... There was no Jianmo. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing opened his mouth and wanted to ask Gu Beichen what to do next. Gu Beichen''s thin lips seemed to have no hook and laughed at himself. The eagle slipped through the depths of his eyes and turned slowly, "go back..." Xiao Jing''s lips moved and wanted to say something, but he felt that everything he said was idle at the moment. If Jian Mo and Su Jun are really together... Chen Shao''s turn is right now, isn''t it? But what Xiao Jing didn''t expect is that many things you think are right are often wrong... And sometimes the consequences of this mistake are very serious. So that later, he was always angry by Gu Beichen, deducted the year-end bonus and beat his chest and feet. The roaring sound drove the sound of rollers rubbing the ground. When the plane flying to London slid into the blue sky with a touch of exhaust, the black Maybach drove away slowly from the airport parking lot The two run counter to each other. The sunshine at noon is just right. Because there is no wind, it feels warm Xiao Jing stopped at the cemetery in Los Angeles. Gu Beichen looked sideways and got out of the car with a white daisy. "You don''t have to come back to the company..." Gu Beichen said faintly, then closed the door and stepped into the cemetery step by step. Guided by the tomb keeper, Gu Beichen stood in front of the tombstone of his father-in-law and mother-in-law just two days ago "Well, Miss Jane is pathetic, too." The grave keeper sighed, "two years ago, he buried his father with two servants at home, and two days ago, he buried his mother..." Gu Beichen glanced at the tomb keeper and gently opened his thin lips, "is she alone?" "There''s another man, very handsome..." said the grave keeper. "It''s probably her husband? Fortunately, with someone... Or how desolate?" Such words are unintentional and the listener is intentional. Gu Beichen''s heart suddenly seems to be pierced by a needle "Alas..." the tomb keeper sighed deeply. "Talk to them. I''ll go down first." Then he looked at the tombstones of Jane Zhanfeng and Su Mo, and turned and left. Gu Beichen bent over, put the daisy in front of the tombstone, and then respectfully made three rites A gust of wind blew gently, and old leaves fell on the tombstone. Gu Beichen took it down, sighed and said slowly, "I''m sorry I didn''t take good care of your daughter... Now, I want to take good care of you, but I don''t have a chance." In his low voice, there was a trace of dullness, busyness, hangover and night wind... Even though Gu Beichen was an iron body, he could not withstand the dual pressure of body and mind. Looking at Jian Zhanfeng''s name, Gu Beichen frowned slightly and said slowly, "if I had been serious about exploring Jian Mo''s past, I would have been more kind to her... I''m sorry for the accident two years ago." Gu Beichen''s cold face has a touch of sadness that people can''t understand... There is loss at a loss and helplessness after loss. Originally, I just wanted to give her an unforgettable proposal But in the end, her heart was not with him. For two years, maybe she really just regarded him as the gold owner as she said But what should we do? His heart was lost on a woman named Jian Mo! Gu Beichen didn''t know how long he had been in front of the tomb and didn''t talk much. He just looked at the tombstone quietly, and the ink pupil was getting deeper and deeper Until the sun moved to the West unwilling to be lonely and the wind became cold, he took back his eyes and turned away. Standing at the gate of the cemetery, Gu Beichen looked up slightly, and the eagle''s eyes fell into the sky Jane Mo, if Su Junli is your life, I want to bless you, but... Why can''t I say it? Chapter 210 Gu Beichen didn''t return to the emperor group. If such a large company has operational problems after leaving for a day or two, it shows that the group has problems at all. Gu Beichen took a taxi back to the Runze garden. When he pressed the password and opened the door, he saw that it was all protected by a dust cloth, his heart began to slide At the moment of opening the door, he even imagined Jane Mo''s flattering smile before. Most of her would come over and hook his neck, saying: ah Chen, how did you come back? Didn''t you go to your little lover? Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a faint radian, but there was a trace of sour in that smile. "Husband, I''m so tired..." Gu Beichen felt that he not only had hallucinations, but also had auditory hallucinations! Look around, there is no Jane Mo''s figure, nor her laughter... Not to mention her soft hug. Gu Beichen went in and didn''t know what he wanted to do. He just stood in the bedroom At this moment, he can clearly remember the days when Jian Mo just moved to Runze garden... She danced Tango alone in the rain, with neat movements and waves under passion. He didn''t know her. From the beginning... She was just an obedient wife, a wife who took back the shares held by his second uncle. With slender fingers, gently open the drawer where Jianmo stores jewelry. The first purpose is to enter the jewelry box with magic jewelry logo. Gu Beichen took it out and opened it gently The smile at the corners of the mouth could not help but rise, but it was too cold and had no temperature. This is the first non professional thing designed by Jian mo. at that time, she was short of money, but she didn''t ask him for it She could see the light under her eyes when she designed this set of jewelry... The loss when she saw him buy it. He put it into his jewelry company and made it into a finished product. He gave her a two-year anniversary gift... She was as happy as a child at that time. Gu Beichen smiled. This smile was full of tenderness. With a loud bang, Gu Beichen closed the jewelry box and put it in the drawer... He looked around and finally looked at the head of the bed. Several architectural design books that were originally placed there as birthday gifts for her are missing Gu Beichen didn''t even think about it. He knew that the only thing in this room that Jane Mo could take away was the books he sent... Those books! Turn around and close the door gently With a click, the door lock fell, taking away not only Gu Beichen''s figure, but also all his memories of Jian mo. When Li Yunze saw Gu Beichen coming to him, he matched the medicine and said, "although I have a pair of hands that can open the belly... But I can''t heal the emotional injury! If you ask me to cut off your memory, I haven''t done it, but I can experiment with you." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes'' Shua ''once, the cold and fierce essence light has been shot at Li Yunze. "Tut tut..." Li Yunze shook his head, "look at your sad abandoned woman... Don''t ask for comfort from me." Gu Beichen took his sight, "when will it be good?" "There is a postoperative observation, about an hour later..." Li Yunze replied. Gu Beichen said, "well," I''ll wait for you here. " Li Yunze couldn''t laugh or cry. "The emperor has closed down. Are you so idle?" Gu Beichen ignored Li Yunze directly. He was in a bad mood and unhappy Li Yunze sighed secretly and thought for an hour. He couldn''t be so emotional. He couldn''t help changing the topic, "what''s going on over there, your second uncle?" "The anniversary is coming. I think he''s coming back." Gu Beichen said faintly, "besides, JK is controlled by the emperor. Can he sit still?" Li Yunze was silent and asked, "what do you do with Shen Chu?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was slightly deep and said slowly, "she... Let me down." "Have you handled everything about Jane Mo?" Although Li Yunze knew it was bad to mention Jian Mo at the moment, he also knew that Gu Beichen wanted to mention her in his heart. "She didn''t plagiarize. What''s there to deal with?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows with some pride, "but I didn''t expect her works coming out day and night to amaze everyone''s eyes." "Including you?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows and didn''t expose Gu Beichen. He''s not your wife at the moment. How proud are you? Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows. His mind was completely like Jane Mo was so tired that she fell asleep on the table that night Jane Mo has a bad habit of drawing design drawings at home. She doesn''t like to go to the study, so she likes to be on the table! Gu Beichen suddenly found that he remembered every bit of Jane Mo in the past two years Li Yunze stared at Gu Beichen''s face and fell into a look that couldn''t come out of the memory. He sighed again... He felt sorry for his brother. It''s not easy to see your feelings. The heart of a special woman is not fart on him! ¡­¡­ "Dear passengers, the plane will arrive at its destination in half an hour, London Heathrow International Airport..." a nice and soft voice came from the radio, "the landing time is 3:47 pm local time, and the ground temperature..." Jane Mo rubbed her bleary eyes, looked at Su Junli with a cute face, and said in a muffled voice, "are you here?" Su Junli smiled, "I''ll be there soon..." Jian Mo was about to wreak havoc on his eyes when Su Junli caught him. "Don''t rub it, your eyes are red..." he sighed softly, "you are pregnant now. You can''t take medicine or anything, and don''t pay attention." Jane Mo immediately sat up with a smile on her mouth, gently put her hand on her lower abdomen and joked, "milk bag, why don''t you live with your uncle Jun in the future and know how to take care of people?" She just joked, but in Su Junli''s ear, she immediately looked at Jian Mo''s eyes become far-reaching and long I don''t care who the child''s father is. I''m willing to take care of your mother and son... Momo. In fact, life can be very simple. The plane landed safely with Su Junli and Jian Mo''s respective thoughts. For the first time abroad, it is also a dream country... Jian Mo''s excitement is unspeakable. It''s OK to say that Sujun is a big city in foreign countries, because it''s also a few familiar places all year round. They took a taxi and went to the reserved hotel first. After a little rest, Jane Mo couldn''t wait to see the University of London she was thinking about. "Eat something before you go..." Su Junli didn''t promise. Jane Mo thought, anyway, the person has arrived, the University of London is there, and she won''t run away... Just nodded. After all, now everything should take the small milk bag in the stomach as the primary consideration. After dinner, it was dark in London, but it couldn''t stop Jane Morse from going to have a look first Su Junli went with Jian mo. as a university located in central London, it is famous for its high cost... However, many departments are also among the best in the world. For example... Jian Mo is studying in the Department of architectural design for the Chinese New Year! Jian Mo stood at the gate of the University of London. A thin layer of water mist filled her eyes with excitement, "here I am..." Gently three words spit out delicate and soft lips, showing the urgency of disappointment and the hope of astringency... It contains too many feelings in memory. Su Jun looked away at Jian Mo and said silently: I''ll accompany you! Chapter 211 The wind is light, and the old leaves of summer oak are flying on the ground University College London has a unique and charming temperament, so that Jane Mo''s study days here... Every day is comfortable and full of hope. "Jun Li, I find I like it here..." Jian Mo said excitedly. "I think it''s a happy thing that I will precipitate myself here in the future." Su Junli and Jian Mo looked at each other and smiled. He didn''t say anything, but silently accompanied her In the next days, you have your dreams, and I... Have you! Su Junli and Jian Mo walked shoulder to shoulder on the path full of dead leaves of summer oak. While feeling the atmosphere of the college, they walked deep step by step "Foam..." "Huh?" Jane answered softly. "I want to say to you..." Su Junli suddenly stopped, with a warm smile in his mouth, and a long feeling in his voice like a violin. "At this moment, you are the most beautiful time I have seen you in recent months... Full of vitality and hope." Jian Mo glanced at him. Under the yellow street lamp, there were mottled branches and leaves shaking gently. It was clear that the air was wet and cold, but her heart was warm. "Thank you..." Su Junli said softly, "... Came out of all kinds of bad..." "Thank you for your company..." Jane Mo pursed her lips and smiled brightly. "I know you''re only here for me!" Su Junli smiled, smiling softly and like the spring breeze, driving away the slight cold under the winter night, revealing layers of warmth and enveloping Jian mo Later, Jian Mo always recalled today and couldn''t help sighing... Many times, the feelings are wonderful and helpless. Often, because of their inner vulnerability, they inadvertently hurt the people around them... Helpless, but they can only face it! The early morning of winter in Los Angeles seems to be much later Li Yunze got up to run in the morning. Seeing that Gu Beichen had got up, he took a towel and threw it to him, "together?" Gu Beichen took the towel, put Li Yunze''s sportswear on, and then ran with him in the dark You can''t catch up with them all the way. When you run back five kilometers, it''s already bright. "I have an operation in the morning. I''m going to the hospital later... Help yourself!" Li Yunze was unable to make complaints about Beichen''s son''s presence in him last night. Don''t you just turn your wife into someone else''s wife? As for those who are afraid of being hurt by the scenery, they don''t even go home Gu Beichen said faintly, "I''ll go back too..." then, he went out with Li Yunze, drove back to the villa in the middle of the mountain. From a distance, Gu Beichen saw Chu Zixiao leaning on the hood of the car smoking. The morning dew seemed to fall on him. Stop the car. Gu Beichen first looked at Chu Zixiao and then opened the door and got off the car. "When did you come here?" "Last night." Chu Zixiao''s voice was a little hoarse. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, looked at Chu Zixiao and then entered the villa, "help yourself." He put down a sentence and went upstairs to wash and change his clothes, but in a moment, he faded his decadence and was already a cold and domineering president. After coming down, Chu Zixiao just made coffee. "Say anything!" Gu Beichen took a sip of coffee to refresh himself. Chu Zixiao''s eyes looked at Gu Beichen deeply, "are you really divorced from her?" He asked. "Didn''t you listen to her?" Gu Beichen answered casually. Chu Zixiao immediately stared, "were you there that night?" He was obviously surprised, "so you used to marry Su Jun because of her divorce?" "No!" Gu Beichen told the truth that his purpose was to chase his wife. In fact, he believed that Jian Mo and Su Jun would be together. However, he didn''t believe that she divorced him in the morning. They turned around and got married. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were a little complicated. He looked at Gu Beichen for a while. Finally, he got up and left... Soon, there was a roaring engine sound outside, and it was getting farther and farther away After waiting all night, in fact, he just wanted to know something That night, I went to question Jian mo. He was dazed for a moment before he believed that she and Su Jun were divorced and married. Jane Morse told him in Luoda that she was not lying to him if she was moved by Beichen. If so, how could she turn around and marry Su Junli? He was too stupid... Passed her again. Gu Beichen looked at the car leaving the dust. His ink pupil was deep. He took back his sight and left the villa. He drove to the Emperor Group The earth is still turning, and no one can stop time. The emperor is still running, and Gu Beichen can''t selfishly immerse himself in a relationship that ends at the beginning. The anniversary will be a severe test for him and the emperor since he took over the emperor. Gu Beichen''s car turned the corner and slid into the scope of emperor group. When he was about to get off the underground parking lot, suddenly, a personal shadow ran out like a ghost "Squeak -" Gu Beichen stepped on the brake, and the eagle''s eyes looked deeply at the Jian truss in front of his car, and suddenly his face was cold At the right time, a security guard had come and tried to drag the truss away. "Gu Beichen, I have something to tell you..." Jane truss looked at Gu Beichen through the windshield and roared, "it''s about Jane Mo -" Upon hearing that it was about Jian Mo, Gu Beichen instantly solidified his eyes, then opened the door and got out of the car. "Gu Beichen, Gu Beichen..." Jian truss saw Gu Beichen get out of the car because he said Jian Mo, and his eyes lit up and looked greedy. "What I want to say is about Jian Mo, it''s Jian Mo!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, calmly motioned to the security guard, then threw the car key to one of the security guards, then turned and walked in directly from the door of the company As soon as Jian truss saw it, he quickly broke free from the restriction of the security guard and followed Gu Beichen into the emperor building with a greedy smile. Susan saw that Gu Beichen came to the company and took out several documents that must be signed by him and prepared to send them in. When she saw Jane truss following behind him, she frowned slightly. "Make two cups of coffee." Gu Beichen said as he opened the office door. "OK!" Susan answered, then glanced suspiciously at Jane truss and turned to make coffee. Until the coffee came in, Susan went out again and closed the door, Gu Beichen said calmly, "come on, what''s the matter with Jane Mo?" Jian Heng used to be a small business of Yuanda construction company. Although he was degenerated due to gambling, he was also a person with educational background and ideas. I called Jian mo before. Jian Mo''s tone was obviously very hard. Later, she turned it off... I couldn''t get through any more. He went to her company to block her, but he didn''t block anyone for two days... There was no way, he had to come here to block Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen must have something to do with Jane Mo because of her fear before listening to her! "Chen Shao, why do you have to express your message?" Jane truss''s eyes were greedy, "not much, a million!" Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep, and his thin lips gently hooked a cold arc, "it depends on whether what you said is worth it..." "Whether it''s worth it or not depends on what position Jane Mo has in Chen Shao''s heart..." Jane truss smiled. "If it doesn''t matter, it''s certainly not worth it." Gu beichenjun''s face was so indifferent, and the eagle''s eyes lifted lightly, "in what way?" "Her first time..." Jane truss said slowly. Chapter 212 Gu Beichen''s instant ink pupil, and the two essence "Shuai" shot towards the simple truss... Instantly, the surrounding air became condensed. If Mo''er gave Zixiao such a private thing for the first time, even if it was his own brother, he should not say Unless... There''s something else! Gu Beichen instantly converged his fierce eyes, recovered his indifferent eyes, and fell on Jian truss, "Oh?" His thin lips heaved a thin radian, "what makes you think... I would be willing to buy the first such news of Jian Mo?" Jian Heng didn''t find Gu Beichen''s instantaneous changing mood, but raised his lips and said, "the woman around me... Didn''t give it to herself for the first time, don''t you care?" Gu Beichen smiled, "the woman around you?" He said softly, "I have more women around Gu Beichen... If I care about everyone, don''t I have to be tired to death?" Jane Chang''s face changed, "that means you just don''t want to know?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but his thin lips raised an arc like nothing, and a pair of ink pupils looked at Jian truss as deep as the sea Jane truss was flustered by Gu Beichen''s attitude. Does... Xiaomo really have no special relationship with Gu Beichen? However, seeing that Xiaomo was so afraid that night, Gu Beichen knew that he should not "Unexpectedly, Chen Shao doesn''t want to know, so we have nothing to talk about..." Jian Chang''s desperate pressure on Gu Beichen must want to know. He deliberately wants to leave, which is completely a gambler''s mentality. Unfortunately, who is Gu Beichen? It has been nearly three years since he became the emperor. He has been playing for the emperor for nearly three years? Oh Gu Beichen hissed coldly and didn''t respond at all. Jane truss walked to the door and saw Gu Beichen didn''t shout at him. She began to panic When he put his hand on the doorknob, he couldn''t hold his breath. He stopped and looked back at Gu Beichen. Seeing that he didn''t move at all, he bit his teeth and said, "500000!" Gu Beichen smiled, "I won''t give you 50000..." "Gu Beichen, aren''t you afraid I''ll break the news to the media?" Jane was angry. Gu Beichen sneered, "Jian Mo is just one of my many women, not to mention... We have nothing to do now. Don''t you think it''s funny that I''m curious about her first night?" As soon as Jane truss heard this, she suddenly widened her eyes, "since it doesn''t matter, why do you still bring me up?" "I just want to see if there is really a brother who uses his sister to achieve filthy purposes in this world!" Gu Beichen slowly lay back on the chair, laughing mockingly and calmly. Jian Heng was shocked and only guessed that Jian Mo had something to do with Gu Beichen, but... I didn''t think they had nothing to do now! Gritting his teeth, Jian truss looked at Gu Beichen angrily, opened the door with scarlet eyes and left As soon as he left, Xiao Jing had entered the office. "Follow him and don''t let him do anything harmful to Jian mo..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed coldly, "don''t come forward. If necessary... Send him abroad!" What does Gu Beichen mean? Xiao Jing naturally understands Anyway, Jian truss is Jian Mo''s brother and directly let him disappear. Later, Chen Shao will always have a layer of thought in front of Jian mo... Besides, Jian truss is Jian Zhanfeng''s only son. Send abroad... As for what country, it goes without saying. It must be those disasters, which means that he will never have a chance to come back! "Yes!" Xiao Jing answered and turned to go out. When Susan sent the document in, Gu Beichen''s thoughts fell into memory The last day he proposed to Xiao Nan, he asked Jian Mo for the first time. At that time, he didn''t think deeply. Now he wants to come... It seems that he dodges. Suddenly, Gu Beichen''s eyes suddenly looked cold Last time, boss long said he saw Jian Mo in devil''skiss, which was related to Jian truss. The time was the day when Jian Mo took 500000 Gu Beichen''s ink pupil gradually became deep and bottomless. It was like an ancient pond. It made people feel that the surrounding air had become thin. Susan didn''t dare to disturb Gu Beichen''s thoughts, but stood still. Gu Beichen restrained his mind and took his mobile phone and sent a text message to Long Xiao: I doubt that Shen Hao, who was active in the South District, knows what happened that night two years ago. Please check it for me. There are rules on the road. The man who moves in the south area has his own power. It''s not Gu Beichen who can''t make it. He always has a sense of what happens... If it''s not Jian Mo, it will have a bad impact on Jian mo. Long Xiao''s message came back soon: I''ll send someone to check and call you when I have news... I haven''t returned to Los Angeles recently. Gu Beichen: Well, good! After replying, Gu Beichen threw his mobile phone on his desk, listened to Susan say about JK holding and the anniversary, and signed the document at the same time. Because he didn''t deal with things for two or three days, Gu Beichen was busy all day Even so, he still has time to steal time to look at the photos of the three meals sent by Jane Morse when she revised the final draft... Now, his tragic discovery is that he only has these three photos of her. The thick finger belly gently slid over Jian Mo''s smiling face. Gu Beichen gently asked, "if it was you two years ago that night... I''m afraid I would become sharp and destroy the happiness you want now..." The morning in London came in the slight wind. Su Junli and Jian Mo went to school together after breakfast "I went there yesterday. I''m afraid I''ll lose it?" Jane Mo said with a smile. Su Jun lifted his eyebrow, "I''m just on the way with you..." he saw Jian Mo wondering, his mouth was moist, and he smiled as warm as the morning light. "Well, the destination is the same!" "Ah?" Jane Mo looked at Su Jun Li in a daze. Su Jun smiled. "The school invited me to teach in the music department for one year next year..." "Why didn''t I listen to you before?" Jane was surprised. Su Jun lifted his eyebrows. "Because..." he looked at Jian Mo and smiled deeply. "There''s no reason for me to completely promise." And now, yes! Jian Mo''s heart suddenly shook. She is neither a fool nor a love idiot... Su Junli''s words, his eyes and behavior are revealing a message to her! "Jun Li..." Jane Mo pursed her lips. "Maybe I''m wrong... But now I just want to focus on my studies and milk bags!" Su Junli has a pair of eyes that can see through people''s mind. Jian Mo''s resistance, he has seen at a glance I feel a little lost in my heart, but this is the foam he likes... She who knows her way clearly and can ruthlessly cut off other people''s thoughts! "Company is sometimes a feeling!" Su Jun left Mo Ling and smiled, "don''t put pressure on yourself, I won''t deliberately... Well, let it be." Jian Mo looks at Su Jun Li and purses her lips... How else can she answer when he says so? The sun in London is just right, but the sun in Los Angeles has moved west The ''buzzing'' vibration of mobile phones broke the silence in the office. Gu Beichen signed a document and handed it to the supervisor to signal him to go out. Then he picked up his mobile phone and felt nervous when he saw that it was the Dragon Owl "Dragon boss?" Gu Beichen''s voice was slightly frozen. The Dragon owl was silent and said solemnly: "there is a result, you should be prepared in your heart..." Chapter 213 Gu Beichen''s sight suddenly became deep. He said slowly with his thin lips lightly: "is it Jian Mo?" Five words, listening as if asking at will, but no one can understand Gu Beichen''s thoughts at the moment There is anger, remorse, anger and guilt... What''s more, it''s the feeling pouring out! The Dragon owl pondered a little and said, "I caught a little brother around Shen Hao. The news should be reliable..." after a pause, he said, "Jian Heng lost Jian Mo because of gambling debt two years ago. He was supposed to give it to Shen Hao to pay the debt..." "However, at that time, the second uncle urgently needed to ruin my reputation..." Gu Beichen slowly opened his mouth in a cold voice. "Find someone to send the lost Jane Mo with me, and then find a reporter to exaggerate my fans. The effect has been achieved!" "Well..." the Dragon owl answered. In fact, we all know the result at the beginning, but people are not as good as heaven Jane truss estimated that she felt guilty about Jane Mo in the end. The medicine didn''t weigh so much, so that at last Jane Mo volatilized the medicine in advance, and then left! Finally, Gu mohuai''s treachery didn''t succeed "It seems that Jane Mo always thought that the man that night was Shen Hao!" The Dragon owl said in doubt, "even Jian Heng thought so." Gu Beichen''s hand was already clenched into a fist. Because he exerted too much force, the sound of dislocation of bone joints'' quack ''echoed in such a large space, showing the treachery under the heavy and fierce. That night, because he was heavily drugged, he didn''t know who it was... Just by instinct. Mo''er must have been scared that night? When she was so young and young... When she encountered such things, she would only leave in panic. How could she see who it was? When he asked her, she even resisted to say when it was the first time... He would rather misunderstand her and Zixiao than tell the real time. It can be imagined... What harm did it to her that night! Gu Beichen suddenly hated himself... Although that night was not what he wanted! The Dragon owl felt Gu Beichen''s depression and forbearance, and slowly opened his mouth: "what are you going to do?" How do you do it? Gu Beichen closed his eyes and said powerlessly, "I don''t know..." If, if he had known earlier that the woman that night was Jane Mo, would he treat her better? If I had known that she was threatened by Jian Heng because of this matter... Would he deal with it for her and not make her afraid of it? If However, there is no if! He and she have crossed paths... Obviously, there was an intersection, but after the intersection, it forked farther and farther! "Boss long, I don''t know..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth powerlessly and closed his eyes slowly. The Dragon owl frowned. Even though it was so difficult and forbearing, he was not so weak "I''ve figured out what''s going on," said the Dragon owl earnestly. "Whether it''s forced or let go, maybe... It''s all good results, maybe, it''s all injury!" As he said, the bottom of his eyes gradually overflowed with an emotion that no one could see Gu Beichen slowly opens his eyes. He clearly knows that no one can help you or decide for you... Everything can still depend on yourself. But what can he do? Watching Mo''er and Su Jun leave together, he can''t do it, but he can''t force Mo''er to stay with him, regardless of whether she is happy or not Is this the difference between love and non love? Once upon a time, when Shen Chu left, he was angry, but he didn''t tangle! Now, Mo''er has left. He is tangled. He is sad. He hesitates and doesn''t know what to do He wants her to be happy, but he wants to tie her around Gu Beichen stood in front of the French window and looked at the gradually darkening sky in Los Angeles. His cold, carved face was at a loss... And helpless that had never been seen so far! A cup of milk tea, a mousse cake, a midday sunshine While enjoying the leisure time in London and feeling the warmth, Jane Mo draws a picture on a piece of paper with a drawing pen in her hand Because Yu Ziyun said hello to his tutor in advance, Jian Mo can not only attend the course in advance, but also arrange the student apartment. It''s just Jane Mo can''t laugh or cry. Because foreign countries are relatively open, and in order to cater to students with various conditions, there are mixed apartments for male and female students similar to Xiaoyang building... This is completely convenient for Su Jun to leave. Su Junli''s statement is that Jane Mo is pregnant and living in that small apartment is inconvenient for the child''s physical and mental health. Besides, he came to be a professor of music department. The treatment of the school was excellent. Originally, the apartment was also allocated to him for free! Since there is free, Jane Mo naturally doesn''t want to waste her money on this... Besides, she doesn''t want to get too deliberate with Su Junli. As he said... Let it be! Thanks to the excuse of pregnant women, Su Jun left to deal with the apartment... Jian Mo is here to enjoy the sunshine and enjoy the next life. A drawing pen outlines the future life. Jian Mo looks at the prototype on the paper, and a thin smile is aroused in the corners of her mouth A cabin, a small yard, flowers, grass, and fresh vegetables Two trees, a swing, a milk bag... This is her most ideal life now. "Are you a little boy or a little girl?" Jane Mo put her hand gently on her lower abdomen and said with a smile in her mouth, "Mommy won''t take photos. Just look forward to your coming, okay?" Jane Mo said, with her eyes bent into crescent moons with laughter... That sense of happiness made her feel the happiness of her mother when she was pregnant with her. The sun fell on Jian Mo through the window and plated a layer of halo around her Jane Mo is already very beautiful. At the moment, she smiles happily and full of expectation, which is even more charming. Andy is holding a tray in his hand and wearing the clothes of a waiter. He stands in front of the column and looks at Jane mo Like the sea water, the pure blue eyes overflow and gradually turn into surprises, which is a joy like finding a treasure. "Oh, my God..." Andy exclaimed. "It''s so beautiful!" Jane Mo didn''t know that a look was watching her, but picked it up when the mobile phone rang, "Jun Li, are you ready?" "Well, OK, I''ll pick you up for dinner..." Su Jun left. Jane Mo answered with a smile, "OK, I''ll wait for you!" She hung up the phone, then settled the bill and waited outside. Andy has been looking at Jian mo. His long hair is just tied with a horsetail at will. At the moment, it is blown by the wind and slightly raised She always smiles at the corners of her mouth. That smile seems to be sweet to her heart! "I''m going after this girl..." Andy said. The middle-aged boss smiled and said, "such a beautiful oriental girl, I''m afraid she has a boyfriend for a long time!" "There is a saying in the East: great love comes from crowbars!" Andy looked up. "I know a lot about Oriental Culture..." The middle-aged boss didn''t understand At the right moment, Su Junli came over and talked with Jian Mo with a smile, and then they both left Andy''s heart suddenly felt a little painful. Even he could hear a "bang", which was the sound of heartbreak. The boss looked at Andy and joked, "it seems that you can use this crowbar..." Chapter 214 Andy''s sunny face was gloomy. "It''s not good for you to laugh at me like this!" He picked a corner of his eye. "She must have come to the college to report? I''ll go back and find out which department it is... Maybe that person is just her brother!" Many times, foreigners can''t distinguish the appearance of people who are not their own race. They can''t understand whether they are like relatives or not. The boss shrugged and said, "goodluck!" Andy readily accepted this idea, but he didn''t know that there was another sentence in the East, which was called: imagination is full, reality is skinny! When he knew that Su Junli was not Jian Mo''s brother, he said he was very unhappy However, when he knew that Jian Mo was also the Department of architectural design, he was happy again... Because they were from the same department! Time always passes quickly when it is beautiful and expected. On the anniversary of the emperor, Gu muhuai, the "Regent", finally didn''t go back to participate. Because of what, there was a lot of speculation. Some people say that Gu muhuai did not covet the emperor group from beginning to end. It was also said that Gu Beichen is no longer the same as he was in those days, and he has long been a young man who has been stabbed by others Some people say that the emperor now looks peaceful on the surface. In fact, Gu Beichen and Gu mohuai have already secretly hurt each other. But Gu muhuai didn''t come back this time because he was seriously injured! Outside speculation abounds, but the emperor never has any explanation... Even, because of the control of JK, the emperor''s share price keeps rising. The days of Los Angeles are changing under different opinions. Gu Beichen is still a figure reported by the media, whether financial or entertainment gossip However, under the emperor''s big news, it was revealed that Gu Beichen and the hidden wife had agreed to divorce. So far, people have greater interest in this woman... From marriage to divorce, no one knows who this person is! While the people in Xiangyu architectural design department were thinking about whether this person was Jian Mo or not... It seemed that they thought more. Winter goes and spring comes, summer goes and autumn comes... The change of day and night has never stopped the pace of time because of someone. Time flies like a white horse. Time flies, time is like pointing to the middle sand. It slips away without paying attention In a twinkling of an eye... It has been four and a half years since Jane Mo left Los Angeles! "Andy looked at the shadow of the tree and waved her hand in front of him......". Jane Mo turned and looked at Andy, and a faint smile came from the corners of her mouth... Not deep, but it became faint and charming because the sun penetrated the branches and leaves and made mottled light on her. The light wind blew slightly, raising the beautiful short hair of Jane mo A clean, plain but beautiful face, with a white shirt with a waistcoat and a small stand collar, khaki seven point pencil pants, and a pair of thin high-heeled leather shoes that are not too high, set off Jane foam with extra height and beauty. When Jian Mo saw Andy coming over, he said in pure English, "the professor was just looking for you. When will your graduation project be handed in?" Andy is very tall, more than a head higher than Jane mo. he smiled and said, "I''ll hand it in later... By the way, we''re going to have a night tour today. Shall we go together?" "I''m afraid not!" Jane Mo said with a regretful smile, "you know..." Andy was not lost, but suggested with a smile, "take little Jemi with you?" "No..." Jane Mo immediately changed her face. "Jemi was taken out by you last day. When I came back, I found that his thoughts had changed... Please don''t abduct my son casually!" Andy''s face was bitter when he heard it. "Can''t you blame me?" Speaking of the last time he helped take little Jemi, Andy said he was also very depressed The boy''s IQ was so high that he carried the last black pot, which caused his brilliant image in Jane''s face to fall. "If you don''t go today, you have to go after a few days of travel?" Andy raised his eyebrows. His blue eyes were especially bright in the sun. Jane Mo smiled even more proudly, "I''m afraid I''ll disappoint you again..." "Why?" Andy is dissatisfied. "Because not only I can''t go, you can''t go!" Jane Mo picked her eyebrows and said, with a proud self-confidence in her charming son. Andy looked at Jane Mo suspiciously and didn''t understand. "The professor said that he would take our two graduation works to the UIA competition..." Jian Mo said with a laugh when she saw that Andy''s Distressed face turned into excitement in an instant. "Choose one of the two?" "Of course I went to UIA..." Andy was ecstatic. The most important thing was that he could go with Jane! Jane Mo shrugged and closed the book she was reading. "Well, I''ll go back first... See you tomorrow!" Andy raised his hand happily, "see you tomorrow!" Jane Mo turned back and smiled at her. Holding the book, she turned and walked outside the campus Andy looks at Jane Mo''s back with fascination. After so long, he is still infatuated with her... She is his goddess, especially after giving birth to a child. She is so beautiful that he just wants to be with her every day. Unfortunately Andy, when does the piano player next to Jane leave? They have different hobbies. What do they do? They always occupy him, Jane? Jane Mo went back to her apartment and couldn''t help laughing when she saw the car parked outside A light piano sound came from the apartment building, and the breeze made people forget the time. Jane Mo opened the door with a happy mood, but "Hmm..." Jane Mo frowned suddenly. "What''s the smell, so smelly?" The sound of the piano stopped suddenly. Su Junli was sitting on the piano and looked at Jian Mo with a smile on his mouth, and then looked at the little figure of the old God sitting on the sofa reading with teasing in his eyes. "Mommy, you are so rude!" Jian Jie didn''t even look at Jian Mo, shook his head and sighed, "Durian, as the king of fruit, has rich nutrition. First of all, it has the effect of relieving dysmenorrhea!" Then he raised his head. When Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, his young and handsome face was serious, "well, I specially prepared it for you!" "..." Jane felt like she was struck by thunder. "Milk bag, I''ll give you two minutes to clean these things out..." she pointed to two durians on the table and gnashed her teeth. "Otherwise, you''ll be dead!" Jane Jie frowned. "First of all, you can call me Xiao Jie... Second, you can also call my English name Jemi! Milk bag?" His little face was completely disgusted. "Can you please don''t lower mine with your IQ?" Jian Mo secretly gnashed his teeth, put the book aside and slightly picked his chin, "no way... That''s my IQ!" "Childish!" Jian Jie sighed and shook his head, then put down the book and got up. "The only time you''re smart... Is to give birth to me!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Jane Mo suddenly felt very depressed and gave birth to a son. She disliked her like this... Is it really good? Thinking about it, Jian Mo looked at Su Junli. He smiled and opened his mouth lightly: "the durian was sent by Xiaojie''s female classmate. He said Xiaojie was going home. I hope to remember her... Well, it''s best to miss her!" Jian Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and said with some wailing, "foreign children are so comfortable with Chinese... It''s not a good thing!" Then she looked at Jian Jie and shouted with a broken face, "milk bag, take out those smelly things for me --" Chapter 215 In order not to drive his mommy crazy, Jian Jie decides to deal with durian first... However, he is also drunk and quite unhappy that Jian Mo doesn''t understand his love. He is such a proud and charming little male god. People don''t want gifts... Thinking about the uncomfortable days of Mommy every month, I decided to come back with such a heavy thing. Alas... Heartache! Jane Jie mourned, then clapped her hands and returned to the house. "I said last time, you can''t push it off..." when Jian Jie threw durian back, Jian Mo was talking to Su Junli. Su Junli was obviously helpless. "I''m very depressed because I missed your graduation design competition!" "It''s okay, at least Jane can go back to China..." Originally, Su Junli only promised to stay in the music department for one year. However, because of Jian Mo, he was finally awarded a visiting professor. He occasionally came back to substitute classes and would participate in some touring concerts or charity concerts all over the world on weekdays. Of course, I sometimes go back to Los Angeles for a while However, I spent most of my time in London and became a super daddy during Jane Mo''s study. Now to ask which father has strong skills, Jane Jie will say it''s his family! Well, although this suckling father is not his own father "I want to go with Mommy!" Jane Jie spoke. Jane Mo wondered, "don''t you leave the concert with your family uncle?" Doesn''t this little guy like watching Junli play the piano best? Jian Jie sighed, "there''s no way. I''m afraid you''re so stupid and you''re seduced by a bad man... So I decided to go with you!" He shook his head like an adult who couldn''t let go of his child, with a helpless expression... He broke his heart when he was more than half a month away from the age of four. Jian Mo is very depressed and doesn''t want to talk to Jian Jie at all Su Jun smiled from the corner of his mouth. Looking at Jian Mo''s angry appearance, he couldn''t help comforting and said, "I''m going to go there tomorrow. Let''s go out to eat tonight, huh?" "I''m not in the mood to eat with the milk bag..." Jane Mo glanced angrily. Su Jun''s smile deepened from the corner of his mouth. After four years of precipitation, he liked this woman called Jian Mo more and more She is calm, persistent and serious, but when she treats Jane Jie, her world is simply yearning. Jane Jie wriggled her little body to Jane Mo, took Jane Mo''s hand, raised her face and said, "Mommy, don''t be angry... It''s a big deal, I don''t dislike you this week!" "..." Jane Mo rolled her eyes. Is there such a comfort? Yes, yes?! Jian Jie looks at Jian Mo and grins... It''s not childish for an adult to comfort a child? Su Junli looked at the two people and kept chuckling and opening his mouth at the right time, "are you going to confront each other all the time, and then... Hungry?" Jane Mo glanced, "forget it, my adult doesn''t care about villains!" "Forget it, I did a good deed that day!" Jane Jie and Jane Mo spoke almost at the same time. Su Junli couldn''t help but laugh heartily Laughter filled the small apartment building. Such happiness was very small, but it was very heavy in Jian Mo''s heart and filled her whole heart! Under the setting sun, a silver Lamborghini is driving on the streets of London The soft sunset poured into the open shed, plating a thin halo on the driver, and his figure was particularly lonely. Gu Beichen gently put his arm on the window and manipulated the steering wheel with one hand, revealing a profound sense of freedom. It has been four and a half years since Jane Mo left Los Angeles. Occasionally I can see her works in design magazines, and occasionally... I can see her standing with Su Jun from the reports of some charity concerts. Long hair has been cut short, as if to abandon everything once Gu Beichen''s mouth slightly outlined an arc of self mockery. Maybe he and Jian Mo really have no fate? In four and a half years, he has been to London many times, but... He has never met her on the street. It''s not that he didn''t want to go to London University and have an "unexpected" encounter, but he was afraid to see her standing with Su Jun Gu Beichen''s car stopped at the intersection, and a bus stopped at the right time to cover the whole Lamborghini body. When the "Dudu" pedestrian light came on, Jane Jie hurriedly shouted, "Mommy, uncle away, hurry up!" Jane and Lu Mo''er hurried to the other side of the road, holding Jane and Lu Mo''er''s hand Just when the figure of the three people formed a dead angle with Lamborghini, Gu Beichen''s line of sight went from the other side to the intersection, but left a color of clothes in the bottom of his eyes. The green light came on, Gu Beichen stepped on the accelerator and drove forward... The bus started at the same time, but a few seconds later, they passed by again. Gu Beichen found a parking space and stopped the car. Wei''an''s body stood in front of the sports car and immediately attracted countless eyes. Some are envious, some are ambiguous... And some are jealous. Gu Beichen ignored those eyes and just walked around casually... The probability of meeting is very low, but he persisted for four and a half years. "Mommy, can you accompany me to that store?" With bright eyes, Jian Jie pointed to a hand-operated peripheral store in front of him, and then turned to Su Junli, "uncle, you go to the restaurant and wait for us first, okay?" Su Junli nodded with a smile when he knew what the ghost spirit was going to do. Jane Mo looked helpless, but she still led the son of the pit mother to the store he said. This is a hand-made shop, full of colorful animation characters and some surroundings. Even though Jian Jie has a high IQ, he is still a child and likes these things very much... He stands in front of the change department and looks around and feels it, as if he is struggling with what he wants. Jane Mo''s education is very casual, but it does not allow children''s desire to expand. If you like many things, you can only choose the one you like best... You must start from an early age! Hesitant, I don''t know what I want most "Is that all right?" Jane Jie asked with the hand of a bumblebee. Jane Mo nodded with a smile, "the cost will be deducted from your pocket money!" Jian Jie is a little dissatisfied, but he also knows... If you want to pay, you need to rely on yourself. ¡°OK£¡¡± Jane Jie agrees. Jane Mo took Jane Jie to pay the money. Looking at him holding the things in his hand, he looked happy and felt a little guilty She never deceived the milk bag. She gave birth to him for some reason. Without his father''s knowledge She doesn''t know how much the child''s understanding ability is. She only knows that he hasn''t asked her since... Who''s his father! "Mommy, let''s go!" Jian Jie saw that Jian Mo paid the bill, and then took Jian Mo''s hand and walked out. They just turned and walked towards the restaurant. On the corner path behind them, Gu Beichen walked in this direction with his hands in his pockets... Finally, he also entered the handmade shop! Chapter 216 ¡°King£¿¡± The owner of the handmade shop was surprised to see Gu Beichen. "When did you come?" "This morning!" Gu Beichen smiled and spoke faintly. The boss smiled, "that''s really lucky. The change series has just come out and arrived at noon!" "Oh?" Gu Beichen said softly and looked at the transformer. Sure enough, there were many new ones. Gu Beichen walked over and looked at the new work. Finally, he picked up a bumblebee and looked at it in his hand for a long time. He didn''t know what to think... Just when he turned around, he saw a child holding one in his hand? "Just two bumblebees this time," the boss came over in time and said with a smile. "A child bought one just before you came in." Speaking of this, he was a little excited, "that child, like you, must only pay attention to change every time he comes to the store! Well, that child is also Oriental, and his mother is very beautiful and temperament..." Gu Beichen listened and couldn''t help but get a thin smile on his thin lips. He looked perfunctory, but there were some unspeakable loneliness. After paying the bill, Gu Beichen stood outside the shop and looked at the noisy streets of London with eagle eyes slightly deeper. He didn''t know when he was used to coming here, as if... There was a kind of traction. So that every time he came to London, he would take a changed hand from here The mobile phone vibrated at the right time. Gu Beichen took it out and saw that it was Xiao Jing and picked it up "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing said excitedly, "this UIA will be held in London in three days!" Gu Beichen frown, "it seems you are very idle, there is time to pay attention to these......" "Hey, hey, you didn''t take part in the course of taking enough credits back then. I just met you this time. Why don''t you go and have a look?" Xiao Jing said, "I''m not sure I can see a good design!" Xiao Jing felt that his special help was even more difficult. For the sake of the boss''s worries, he also pretended to be stupid to suggest Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes drooped slightly, "say it again!" "Well..." Xiao Jing was disappointed and thought Chen Shao would be impatient. After all... Miss Jane will graduate this year! Gu Beichen hung up the phone, took the manual and continued to walk forward. His figure crossed the restaurant with integrated atmosphere, and his steps were always slow Jian Mo and Jian Jie went to wash their hands and came out. At the right time, the waiter had sent the meal. Just when the waiter was serving, his figure blocked Jian Mo''s sight out of the window Later, Gu Beichen felt that God was playing with him on purpose. They all said that it was only three things, but in an hour, he and Jane Mo passed by three times... But they didn''t know each other! The next day, Jian Mo and Jian Jie sent Su Jun away from the airport. Then, Jian Mo went to the kindergarten where Jian Jie was and went through the school leaving formalities. After participating in the UIA architectural design competition this time, Jian Mo will take Jian Jie back to Los Angeles... She feels that if she doesn''t go back, she will be driven crazy by Yu Ziyun. For more than four years, Jane Mo hasn''t returned to Los Angeles once. She doesn''t want to go back, but wants to precipitate completely Over the past four years, with the efforts of Xiangyu, it was finally listed years ago and ranked among the top five architectural design companies in Los Angeles Now, according to Yu Ziyun''s words, he is waiting for Jian Mo to go back and become famous in one fell swoop, and then it will be a wedding gift for him and Luo Xiaojing. Andy looked at the circle waiting for the results. Architectural design college students and their professors all over the world asked, "Professor Albert, you don''t seem to worry about the results of the competition at all!" Albert looked indifferent. "Even if I have no confidence in you, I have great confidence in Jane..." As soon as Andy heard this, he immediately looked dissatisfied. "You treat me differently, which means I''m very upset!" Albert rolled his eyes and was very upset that Andy always followed Jane Mo to say some Oriental Internet terms. "Where''s Jane?" Albert looked around and suddenly found that his favorite student was missing. Andy shrugged. "It''s estimated that he was dragged away by little Jemi..." Jian Mo stood outside the venue and confronted Jian Jie, feeling a little headache. Jane Jie said proudly, "Mommy, I can declare in advance..." he tilted his mouth, "Although I don''t know who my father is? But, I have only one father... Even if I don''t want that, I have to be a Chinese. Although I was born and raised in England, I have a patriotic heart, so... If you find me a foreign father, I won''t agree!" Last time I was with Andy, he thought he was too enthusiastic. Today, he was too attentive... He has been peeping at his mommy for a long time! As he came to stare at mommy for the legendary daddy, even if he couldn''t, how should his later daddy choose to leave uncle? Andy, don''t even think about it Jane Mo has been unable to explain that she and Andy are really just pure friendship... Okay? "Don''t you still have an affair with a little foreign girl?" Jian Mo is dissatisfied. She is extremely upset that Jian Jie will despise her childishness like Gu Beichen, and that only the state officials set fire and the people are not allowed to light the lights. "It''s pure friendship. What''s in your mind? It''s really dirty!" Jane Jie is dissatisfied. Jane Mo stared angrily. "Andy and I are just pure friendship..." she said, glancing her mouth and saying, "I''m going in. Do you want to go in?" "No," Jane Jie shook her head. "I feel sad to see you and Andy together. I''d better take a breath here." Jian Mo shriveled his mouth and finally just explained to Jian Jie before entering the venue But at the moment when Jane Mo turned around, she didn''t expect to see an unexpected person when she returned to the meeting. "I didn''t expect to see you here..." Professor Albert was surprised and surprised when he saw Gu Beichen. As a minor in his class, Gu Beichen got his degree certificate with the highest score in the same period, he was particularly impressed. Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "if I say... Specially to see the professor, do you believe it?" Albert smiled. "Then shouldn''t you go to school to see me?" "The professor is still so witty!" Gu Beichen also joked. "Is there any research in this area now?" Albert asked. He was always angry that another student stole Gu Beichen''s design award. Gu Beichen shrugged. "The company is too busy..." he said faintly. Albert sighed, but did not continue to tangle. He just brightened his eyes and said, "if you don''t hurry to go, I''ll introduce you to my favorite student... Well, her talent is as good as you!" "Oh?" Gu Beichen was surprised. When he just wanted to ask who it was, Andy looked at Gu Beichen''s back and said in surprise, "Professor, Jane is back." Gu Beichen frowned slightly when he heard ''Jane'', and subconsciously turned to look At a glance, Gu Beichen knew how much he missed this woman in recent years when he saw Jane Mo holding up his hands and greeting Andy and smiling. Jian Mo''s hand was still in the air, and the smile on her face was frozen there. Looking at Gu Beichen, she felt that the illusion that had not appeared for a long time... Appeared again! Chapter 217 "Jane is the one I said..." Albert said with a smile. "I don''t pay attention to the result of the game today because I know that her work must get the trophy back!" What did Albert say? Gu Beichen didn''t listen. He just looked at Jian Mo deeply She has been seen too much in pictures, reports or news. Seeing her now is the real her. The long hair was cut off, beautiful and capable. Thin makeup and graceful figure... Everything exudes self-confidence. Jane Mo put her hand down and came over with a light smile and politeness. "Mr. Gu, I didn''t expect to meet you here!" President Gu? Gu Beichen''s face immediately sank and was dissatisfied. "The relationship between me and you seems to be so strange?" Jane Mo smiled, slightly picked up the corner of her eyebrow and said softly, "is it difficult to call... Ex husband?" Upon hearing this, Gu Beichen said more gloomily, "I''d better call Gu Zong!" Jane Mo smiled, "Gu Zong, you''re so tangled, it''s not suitable for your temperament!" When Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and faced him, he was still so careless. He felt that he came here today to find abuse But what should we do? He couldn''t help but want to come and see her "Eh, do you know each other?" Albert was surprised that he didn''t understand Chinese. Although Andy likes oriental culture, he also knows a little about Chinese. He can''t help looking at them curiously. Jane Mo just smiled at Albert and said, "the works that applied to come over to study before are to participate in a design of the emperor group and have some intersection with President Gu." Albert was so excited when he heard this Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and treated him as a person he only knew. He couldn''t help feeling a little depressed... However, looking at the faint smile on her face and talking confidently, he thought his silent heart burned up again. "Hey, Jane, where''s little Jemi?" Andy suddenly remembered something and asked. Jane Mo felt a chill in her heart. She was just glad that the milk bag and she were angry and didn''t want to come in. Now Andy mentioned it, and her subconscious thoughts stagnated. "Jemi is..." Gu Beichen asked with a slight doubt. Andy smiled and said, "it''s Jane''s son!" "..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil widened in an instant, "what are you talking about? Jian Mo''s son?" In a hurry, he even pulled out Chinese. However, this time Andy understood the latter sentence, smiled and nodded, "yes, little Jemi is a great child!" Gu Beichen ''brushed'' his eyes and looked sharply at Jian Mo, as if asking something. Jian Mo was stunned for a moment and then recovered his calm. He just picked his eyebrow and said, "well, my son, I''ll introduce you later..." "Su Jun left?" Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and asked. Jane Mo wants to say that it makes Gu Beichen subconsciously less likely to peep at her son. However, reports in some places have made her and Su Jun''s relationship more and more ambiguous. She doesn''t want such a misunderstanding to get bigger and bigger. She just shakes her head and says, "no!" "No?" Gu Beichen felt that he was about to become a repeater. "Whose is that?" "Scum man!" Jane Mo said casually. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo puzzled. Jian Mo shrugged as if she didn''t care. Mo Ling said ambitiously, "no way. When she met someone, she was pregnant, and the man ran away with other women... Well, I call that man a scum man!" Because it is the truth, Jane Mo''s expression is serious without any defect. However, when Gu Beichen knew that the "scum man" in Jian Mo''s mouth was himself one day, he said he was very depressed. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with complex eyes. At this moment, his heart was particularly heavy, and he blamed himself... If he had chased him at that time, would she not have endured such a tragedy? "What is Su Junli doing?" Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and asked. Jane Mo felt funny. She rolled her eyes and said helplessly, "I said, Mr. Gu, you seem to be curious about my private affairs... Excuse me, what''s your identity now... Um, care?" "..." Gu Beichen was stunned and immediately said, "ex husband!" Jane Mo had a special impulse to laugh... But she didn''t! Because the people from the competition organizing committee came on stage and said they would announce the results of the competition No accident, Jian Mo''s design "ideal home" won the first place. Jane Mo stood on the table with the trophy, looked around with a faint smile, and finally said, "although it''s not a special accident to get this award, I''m still very happy when I hold it in my hand..." She said confidently. Under the light, her beautiful face was calm, "because of my father, I fell in love with architectural design. Also because of my father, I wanted to give up my dream of studying UCL..." her eyes were slightly far away, so people couldn''t understand the emotion in the bottom of her eyes, "Someone stopped in my life because of him. I''ve been here for more than four years, and every day is full of hope..." Jane Mo didn''t go to see Beichen. She never thought she would see him here. It''s good if she can''t understand some words. Life has to have regrets sometimes. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, and her cold face was full of complex emotions... Did she mean Su Junli? After all, Su Jun has been with her for so long! Just, why did Jane Mo give birth to other men''s children with his company? "Right away, I''m going back to my country. I can take the honor my father once wanted to see back," said Jane Mo, with a smile on her mouth. "I thank my Professor Albert very much. And thank UIA for giving me this award, thank you!" Andy took the lead in clapping. Suddenly, the audience applauded like thunder. Generally speaking, the winning works will be bought by people who come to visit the design, but Jian Mo''s work has not been auctioned She said, this is her home, no one will sell their own home! "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen shouted in a complicated tone. Jian Mo turned back and smiled calmly at the corners of her mouth, "Mr. Gu, I have to find my son... So I won''t accompany you." With that, her eyes were slightly bright. "After going back, I hope Mr. Gu will take care of it more!" She said it politely like a stranger, nodded, motioned, turned and left... But after more than four years of precipitation, the stranger is still the most familiar one in her heart! Gu Beichen didn''t have time to say what he said, but looking at Jian Mo''s still strong back, he was distressed... Even more than four years ago! Mo''er, I didn''t cherish it, and that scum man didn''t cherish it This time you come back... I won''t let you go again. You, I''ll take care of you. I''ll take care of your children, too When the plane flew from one part of the earth to another, Jane Mo listened to the sweet voice of the flight attendants and looked at the gradually clear outline of Los Angeles outside the small window of the plane. Her heart was... Inexplicably nervous. Jane Mo said softly in her heart: Los Angeles... I''m back! For four and a half years, everything here... Made her miss so much. "Mommy," Jane Jie''s little face was excited, "will you see the second mother?" He asked, but he had other expectations in his heart... He was conceived by Mommy when she was in Los Angeles, which shows that the probability of daddy in Los Angeles is very high! Chapter 218 Jane Mo looked back. "Of course... I''m afraid she''s waiting for us at the airport by now!" Because of her work, Li Xiaoyue has only been to London to see Jian Mo twice in the past four years. The first time was when Jian Jie was born, and the second time was when Jian Jie celebrated his birthday last year However, they often video each other, which is not strange at all. Jian Jie looked at Su Junli and said, "Uncle Li, mommy and I are going to live in Los Angeles for a long time. What are your plans next?" Su Jun left the corner of his mouth with a warm smile, and his eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply Jane Jie smiled and everything was self-evident. Although he really wants to know who his father is, but... This does not prevent mommy from finding her own happiness. Uncle Li is for a man who is very suitable to be a husband. Of course, it''s only when Mommy, a stupid woman, is enlightened Jian Jie''s black pupil turned and looked at Jian mo... Mommy doesn''t still have daddy in her heart, does she? The plane fell to the ground with Jian Jie''s excited thoughts. After four and a half years, Jian Mo went out of the airport. The moment she saw Li Xiaoyue, her eyes turned red Even if there are too many injuries in some places, there are more worth chasing! "Girl, welcome back!" Li Xiaoyue said with a choking voice, and then came forward to hold Jane mo. Jian Mo also hugged Li Xiaoyue tightly and said with a smile in her mouth, "well, I''m back..." The sentence "I''m back" contains too much, too much, the helplessness of the past, the waiting and precipitation for more than four years, and more... Is the beginning of hope. Jian Jie saw that Jian Mo felt something and wanted to cry, so the proud and tender began to act like a spoiled child, "second mother, and me, I''m back for the first time!" Li Xiaoyue immediately put down Jian Mo, squatted down with a smile and picked up Jian Jie, "we are less and taller!" "Must......" Jane Jay raised her little chin. "I want to grow my height while I grow my IQ. I''m not the same as some people! If my height is not long, my IQ will stagnate!" Hearing this, Li Xiaoyue couldn''t help raising her lips. However, when she saw Jian Mo looking at Jian Jie bitterly, she immediately ''ha ha'' laughed Jane Jie is always afraid of her intelligence quotient, Jane Mozhen can not make complaints about it. Su Junli rubbed Jian Jie''s head, and there was a message in his eyes that they could understand each other... The little guy didn''t want to see Jian Mo sad! "I''ll go back to Su''s house first, or grandpa may have to jump again." Su Jun left and said, "just right, you should have a lot to say today." Jane Mo nodded and was very moved by Su Jun''s kindness over the past few years, but she couldn''t return what he wanted. "Do you need me to accompany you to see your uncle and aunt tomorrow?" Su Junli asked again. Jane Mo shook her head. "I''ll be there later. I want them to see the milk bag!" Su Jun left "um" and looked at Jian Jie. As expected... She was strongly dissatisfied with Jian Mo''s calling him "milk bag" every time. Jian Mo and Jian Jie went back to her apartment in Li Xiaoyue''s car "I''ve sent your car to the garage for maintenance before. I can drive it tomorrow!" Li Xiaoyue said on the way, "do you still plan to live in Runze garden?" Li Xiaoyue''s apartment is two bedroom. However, Jian Jie is independent and feels like a little man. He doesn''t want to share a room with Jian mo. even if he can make do with it tonight, it''s always inconvenient after that. After several years of development, Lingyu office building has developed rapidly, and the house price is frightening Although Yu Ziyun gave her 3% of the shares when Xiangyu was listed, it was not enough for her to have spare money to buy a house. Moreover, the future development in Los Angeles will inevitably have contact with the emperor group, which makes people suspicious. "Wait for someone to clean up and live there. It''s also convenient for commuters..." Jian Mo said. "Besides, it''s more convenient to enter school nearby." Li Xiaoyue smiled and said vaguely, "yes!" Jane Jie sits on the children''s seat and blinks at the two women chatting in front... Trying to dig out valuable information from their conversation. Although what they said was very obscure, he still heard that the house in the runzeyuan was fishy! After returning to Li Xiaoyue''s house, Jian Mo and Jian Jie washed and changed their clothes, the three had dinner nearby. "I''ll go to the housekeeper and clean up the house for you. You can drive my car to the cemetery..." Li Xiaoyue said, looking at Jian Mo, who chose flowers. "Come back and pick you up in the evening." Jane Mo chose the white daisy. When waiting for the clerk to wrap it up, she said suspiciously, "who are there?" Li Xiaoyue sighed, "Chu Zixiao also came..." Jane Mo has guessed that she doesn''t know how to deal with Chu Zixiao''s persistence. During her stay in the UK, Chu Zixiao has been there several times... Although she has rejected and attacked him for various reasons, it is obvious... Sometimes we really can''t underestimate the persistence of men. "Let''s talk about it in the evening..." Jian Mo opened his mouth, then looked at Jian Jie and looked at Li Xiaoyue. Jian Jie is only four years old because he still has a month to go, and his small face is not handsome. But as long as people familiar with Gu Beichen look at it, they can see the clue Jane Mo doesn''t want Gu Beichen to know that she secretly gave birth to his son. Of course, when she came back, she didn''t want to hide it for a lifetime. But now it''s futile to think more. Take one step at a time. The sunshine in Los Angeles is very good in early summer and a little strong in the afternoon. Jane Mo put the daisy in front of the tombstone and said softly, "Dad, mom, I''m back..." Jian Jie pressed his imaginary family painting under the Little Daisy, "Grandpa, grandma, I''m Jian Jie, your grandson!" He looked at the tombstone and said, "don''t worry, Mommy won''t be bullied if there is a man like me at home in the future." Jian Mo looked at Jian Jie''s proud face and was unable to laugh or cry The older and younger ones spoke in front of the tombstone for a while. They left the cemetery when the sun moved west and the afterglow spread in the western sky. Jian Mo drove Li Xiaoyue''s car slowly to the city, because it was opposite to the British driver''s seat. Suddenly, she was not very used to it and drove very slowly all the way. The car passed a Bentley at the intersection. Because Jane Mo drove too hard, she didn''t notice that Xiao Jing was driving in Bentley. "Well, it seems that it was Miss Jane just now?" Xiao Jing said suddenly. Gu Beichen suddenly raised his head, then turned and looked through the back glass, "where?" "The silver gray car just now..." Xiao Jing said with some doubt, "it seems that Miss Jane will drive again?" "Turn around!" Gu Beichen said coldly. Xiao Jing was stunned. "Don''t you go to the cemetery?" Gu Beichen frowned, looked at the Little Daisy beside him, and finally said, "go to the cemetery!" "Oh..." Xiao Jing answered, looked at Beichen from the rearview mirror, and said with a split corner of his mouth, "Chen Shao, Xiangyu will compete for an overall architectural design of the emperor next week. It seems... Miss Jane is coming back with this!" Chapter 219 "What else do you need?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows, and the ink pupil was full of joy. Xiao Jing grinned, "Chen Shao, do you mean... Directly to Xiangyu?" He looked at Gu Beichen in the rearview mirror and saw that he raised his eyebrows. He couldn''t help saying, "Chen Shao, you''re playing favoritism! As the CEO of a group, is this really good?" "Do I need to be selfish?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows. "You know how Jian Mo''s design is! Besides, after four years of baptism of UCL... She is the first winner of this UIA. I have confidence in her design!" Xiao Jing couldn''t stand turning his eyes. "I admit that Miss Jane''s design is great... But, Chen Shao, your attitude is clear now. It''s not fair!" "The emperor is mine. What I say is fairness!" Gu Beichen was elated at the moment. When he saw Jian Mo at the UIA scene, he couldn''t wait to hear her say he was coming back. Unexpectedly, he came back today, and she came back... But she wasn''t on the same flight! However, Gu Beichen thought that after Jian Mo left him, he didn''t leave with Su Jun and was hurt by a scum man. He felt that he vomited blood in his heart... If he didn''t care whether she was happy or not and directly caught him back, wouldn''t he Gu Beichen''s smile gradually converged, his face turned to the outside, and his eagle eyes became deeper and deeper. In that case... Maybe now her child will be his! Feeling something wrong with the smell in the car, Xiao Jing looked at Beichen from the rearview mirror and frowned slightly. The car stopped at the cemetery. In recent years, Gu Beichen has formed a habit... He will come to see Jian Mo''s parents once a month and come back from London once. Looking at the little daisy in front of the tombstone and a picture gently fanned by the wind, Gu Beichen put the daisy in front of and behind the tombstone and paused Slender and powerful fingers pulled out the painting... At first glance, it was a child''s crayon painting! There are five people in the painting. It can be seen that there are Jian Zhanfeng, Su Mo, Jian Mo and the child... But the face of a man holding the child is blank, just turned into a cartoon smiling face. Gu Beichen''s heart was stung in an instant... How old is the child? There is no father Slowly dropped his hand, Gu Beichen pressed the painting under the daisy again, but this time it was pressed with his own bundle. Looking up at the black-and-white photos of Jian Zhanfeng and Su Mo, Gu Beichen said, "she''s back. You must be very happy to come back in the way you want?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised, and the lines on Jun''s face were much softer. "Since she''s back and there''s no one around her who can take care of her, let me top it, okay?" The smile gradually spread over Junyan and fainted in the depths of the ink pupil. "This time, I will work hard..." he said with some ease and pleasure. Gu Beichen took a deep look at Jian Zhanfeng and Su Mo, then slowly got up and walked outside the cemetery Every waiting is different. At first, when Shen Chu waited for five years, he didn''t think he had feelings, but wanted an answer. But now more than four years He calculated seriously, not waiting, but chasing! He chased the figure of Jian Mo and then recalled those two years! As long as there is a report of Jane Mo''s figure, Susan will put the newspaper on his desk and look at the words and phrases and her gradually changing figure. The originally precipitated feeling is like wine. The older it is, the more mellow it is! ¡­¡­ "This one won''t work!" Jian Jie looked at the skirt on Jian Mo''s body, which made the career line looming, and expressed dissatisfaction, "are you going to hook other men behind my back?" "..." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, fanned her beautiful eyelashes and looked at Jane Jie, "I''m aboveboard!" Looking at the depressed appearance of xiaonaibao every time because of her "possessiveness", Jane Mo felt that her life could still recover 10%. "Jie Shao," Li Xiaoyue leaned on the door frame with her arms around her chest and said with a smile, "don''t worry, I''ll help you look at your mommy. But... Are you really OK at home alone?" Jian Jie saw that Jian Mo didn''t have any plans to change clothes. He was a little sulky. "You might as well worry about Mommy, a mentally retarded child!" "I''m so happy that I''m about to be abandoned by the mentally retarded children......"! Tut Tut, in a few years abroad, her idioms are still very slippery! "Let''s go!" Jian Mo finished with Li Xiaoyue, then looked at Jian Jie, "I didn''t come back at 9:30. Remember to call me!" "Don''t worry, it''s never too late..." Jane Jie said unhappily. Jian Mo shrugged and left with Li Xiaoyue Tonight''s reception is in Nanxiang building. For this old hotel in Los Angeles, it is very in line with the appetite of Los Angeles people. There are not many people receiving the wind, including Chu Zixiao, Tang Yu and several people who have a good relationship in the school. "Tut Tut," Lin Fan shook his head and sighed as soon as he saw them coming in. "This beauty is a beauty. Hold any shape!" With that, he quickly got up and welcomed the two people to take their seats. When Chu Zixiao came in from Jian Mo, he didn''t look away from him... Obviously he had been watching, but it seemed that he hadn''t seen it for too long. At least, Jian Mo is more generous than four years ago. The whole person exudes a more mature and charming charm. "Excuse me, go to the bathroom!" Jane Mo spoke faintly, then took her bag and got up. "Do you want to accompany you?" Li Xiaoyue asked. Jane Mo smiled, "I''ve been abroad for more than four years, not forty years!" After joking, she went to the bathroom with everyone''s joy. As soon as the talent went out, the mobile phone text message came The previous mobile phone number is no longer used. It''s a new number only today after I came back. Few people know it. Open it and see it''s a milk bag: Mommy, although you have been influenced by the open mind abroad for several years, you must remember whether men and women give or receive! Jane Mo looked at the little man''s instructions, some crying and laughing, but she still returned to the information: don''t worry, my whole person and heart are yours! Jian Jie looked at the message from Jian MOFA and muttered: I don''t want you, you''re daddy''s! Jane Mo couldn''t guess the little guy''s mind. After she solved it, she went out of the bathroom and saw Chu Zixiao leaning lazily on the front wall and some deep eyes. Seeing Jian Mo coming out, Chu Zixiao slowly raised his eyes and looked sideways. His eyes seemed to absorb Jian Mo into his body. Jane Mo was very calm and walked forward, "wait for me?" "There are many people at the table," Chu Zixiao said in a low voice. "I''m afraid there''s no chance to talk alone after dinner..." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows because she wouldn''t give him the chance! "Mo Mo..." Chu Zixiao shouted a little depressed, "are you... How are you these years?" Jane Mo smiled with confidence and enchanting, "I can see... I''m fine, isn''t it?" Chu Zixiao was silent and then said, "it''s hard to wait for two and a half years, but I''ve been waiting for four and a half years!" Jane Mo understood what he meant, but she felt a little guilty about Chu Zixiao''s persistence, but such guilt was not enough to keep her with him. She only heard her smile and say, "Zixiao, did I tell you before... I have a child!" Chapter 220 Chu Zixiao was stunned there. He just looked at Jian Mo and gradually became complicated, as if he didn''t believe, uncertain and more resistant. "You, you..." Chu Zixiao, as a famous debater, suddenly had some tongue knots. "What did you just say Jane Mo smiled, and her beautiful star eyes were pure and clear, "I have children!" She didn''t lie, so even though Chu Zixiao has a pair of sharp eyes that penetrate into her heart, she can''t see such a "lie"! Chu Zixiao''s face cracked. That winter, he questioned whether Jian Mo married Su Junli... It was a moment of anger. Afterwards, he knew clearly that it was false! Besides, in a rich family, why don''t you know if the three members of the Su family are married? Just... Jane has children? "You lied to me again, didn''t you?" Chu Zixiao asked in a frozen voice, "just like you said you and Su Junli got married, you lied to me, didn''t you?" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and smiled perfunctorily: "it doesn''t matter, whatever you think..." she said with a relaxed face and no burden, "I''ll go first." Looking at Jian Mo crossing himself without any special feeling, Chu Zixiao seemed to have something evacuated in his body. He didn''t want to give up. In four and a half years, he told himself that time is a sharp weapon to cure everything. It can dig out all your waiting! Unfortunately... He was wrong. When Tang Yu heard from Li Xiaoyue that she was coming back today, he was not in the mood to work all day. When he saw her come in, he knew... The suppressed feelings would come down in a sea of mountains and seas, and he couldn''t control it at all "Foam!" Chu Zixiao turned and looked at Jian Mo, "the child is..." he pinched his fist, "did Su Jun leave?" Jane Mo smiled and turned to look at Chu Zixiao. "You and your little uncle are really like..." she smiled calmly. When she said ''little uncle'', she didn''t seem to see the pain of Chu Zixiao''s eyes cracking. "You ask the same questions!" After that, she didn''t answer his question. She just turned and entered the box, leaving Chu Zixiao alone. She couldn''t react in situ. Beichen has seen her? Chu Zixiao gradually frowned, but his heart was empty again. Jian Mo had just gone to the bathroom, and Chu Zixiao went out. He came in shortly after she came back... Everyone knows that they are afraid to talk. However, seeing that Jian Mo was still there, Chu Zixiao was obviously silent and didn''t say anything. Everyone knew... The two people talked unhappily. Just after nine o''clock, Jane Mo''s mobile phone rang. She took it out calmly, as if to deliberately surprise everyone. After listening to the people inside, she said casually, "OK, Mommy, go back now." "Click" sound, in addition to Li Xiaoyue and Chu Zixiao, who has been vaccinated, everyone''s faces seem to be split by lightning. That expression is very good-looking one by one! "Jian mo..." Lin Fan twitched at the corners of his mouth, pointing to Jian Mo and pointing to the mobile phone in her hand, "who can tell me what Mommy means?" Jane Mo smiled and Li Xiaoyue answered for her, "it means Jane Mo has children!" "..." now, everyone was silent, and then looked at Chu Zixiao together. Tang Yu frowned lightly and then looked at Li Xiaoyue with blame in her eyes... She clearly knew that everyone wanted to give ah Xiao and Jian Mo a chance tonight. This woman is good. Jian Mo didn''t know in advance about having children! Li Xiaoyue said she was innocent. She always agreed to either not kill or fight to death... Procrastination is not good for anyone. Besides, the child is Gu Beichen''s. according to the relationship... He wants to call cousin Chu Zixiao. It''s impossible for Mo Mo and him to just talk about this. We can''t mess with the that Lun, can we? "Well, everybody, I have to go first." Jane Mo got up, "we''ll take care of it in Los Angeles in the future!" Then she wanted to leave. Li Xiaoyue left with Jian mo. when she left, she looked back at Chu Zixiao. He didn''t seem to have any special emotion... However, looking at his people, everyone frowned with worry. Li Xiaoyue sighed and left with Jian mo On the way back, Li Xiaoyue drove the car and looked at Jian Mo, "you just expose Jie Shao, and you''re not afraid to look back at Beichen?" "How long do you think you can hide it?" Jane Mo lay back in her seat and said, "I''ll stay in Los Angeles in the future. I can''t escape the first day of junior high school, but I can''t escape the fifteenth day... You said!" Li Xiaoyue smiled, "aren''t you afraid of him pestering you?" She looked at Jian Mo, "or you didn''t put him down at all." "I don''t know. I just don''t want to put my mind on emotion..." Jane Mo said seriously and didn''t avoid, "my focus now is career!" After a pause, she continued, "besides, why haven''t he and Shen Chu been together in the past few years? Who knows? Pester me? Hehe... It''s true that I''m afraid of him grabbing milk bags..." Li Xiaoyue listened to Jian Mo''s calm analysis and looked at her... Now Jian Mo has degenerated into a dazzling pearl and is happy for her in her heart. Who doesn''t have a few ups and downs in his life? Let it be and live happily. "But will Jason look at you a little too tight?" Li Xiaoyue can''t laugh or cry. Jian Mo was helpless, looked at Li Xiaoyue and said, "the boy''s IQ is too high. What''s his intention? I can''t guess what I''m going to be a mother... However, I know that he needs to see his pleasing father. Otherwise, the milk bag will be tossed. The men around me are not sensitive!" Li Xiaoyue agrees, because... I''ve heard Jane Jie complain about the British boy named Andy before. The car gathers dazzling light rivers under the night lights. In the opposite direction, Chu Zixiao drove to blues. When he arrived, Gu Beichen was looking for wine in the wine cellar "Coming?" Gu Beichen looked at him, then continued to look for it. Finally, he stopped in front of a bottle of Cabernet Sauvignon and took it out, "have a drink with me!" Then Gu Beichen went to start the wine and began to wake up. Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen''s actions and the faint smile of evil charm around the corner of his mouth and asked, "have you seen Jane Mo?" "Yes." Gu Beichen didn''t hide, "I saw it on UIA when I went to London this time." He couldn''t help but look deep, "she and I are a mentor..." Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen''s smiling face and asked, "Beichen..." he paused and asked, "do you know... Momo has a child?" Gu Beichen stopped pouring wine and then continued, "Hmm!" "Then..." "I don''t mind!" Gu Beichen interrupted Chu Zixiao''s words, and a low and magnetic voice came faintly. "I don''t mind, but it has nothing to do with mind!" Chu Zixiao was a little anxious. Gu Beichen glanced at him, "although she didn''t know in detail, but... She should be single again now!" He said, Mo Tong gradually deep, "Zixiao, I tell you, it''s because I''m bound to win her this time!" Chapter 221 Upon hearing that Jian Mo was single at the moment, Chu Zixiao immediately became decadent and seemed to be full of electricity, "I won''t give in." Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a thin smile if there was nothing. He just looked at Chu Zixiao deeply, and then handed him a glass of wine The woman of that year was her. He would never let go of this alone. Besides... He fell in love with the woman named Jian Mo and didn''t put it down for four years! In this world, he knew clearly from the beginning when he was about to become emperor that there were only two kinds for him... Either get or destroy. Obviously, it is impossible to destroy Jianmo. The only thing left is to get But I''m afraid it''s a long process! There is a quiet hanging in the blues. Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao both know what each other is thinking, but no one will step back. However, what they didn''t think of is that if some things are one step worse... Often, they can''t catch up! Su Junli was shelled by Su Zhenqi for a day, and his head collapsed. "Grandpa, you''ve been talking about Jane Mo and me for four or five years. Aren''t you tired?" Su Junli smiled mildly, "but don''t worry too much! Look at your grandson''s horsepower, I''m not sure you''re worried in vain." Su Zhenqi was a little angry. "What''s the matter with you? You''re an urban celebrity scrambling to marry? That Jane foam has poured out for years, and you can''t make it!" Su Junli cried and laughed, "there''s no way, you don''t support it!" Su Zhenqi was stunned when he heard this! He felt that he had some inconsistencies... He didn''t want his grandson to be with Jian Mo, but he disliked that Jian Mo didn''t like his grandson "Forget it, I don''t care about you!" Su Zhenqi said angrily, "anyway, you can''t take care of it..." he glanced discontentedly, looking like an old urchin. "However, if the child is Gu Beichen''s, you''re not afraid..." "What are you afraid of?" Su Junli smiled. "If I catch up with Mo Mo, I''ll be my own child, and..." he smiled deeply, "we''ll have our own children, too." Su Zhenqi finally smiled when he heard this... However, he felt that he had changed too fast, and finally he tensed up quickly. Su Junli didn''t expose him either. He just got up and said, "I''ll see my mother. I won''t come back to the mansion at night..." "Yes." Su Zhenqi couldn''t help sighing when he heard about Lu''s letter. Forget it, children and grandchildren have their own blessings. He is old and can''t manage so much "By the way, your eldest brother and his tour will be back in a few days. It''s just your eldest uncle''s birthday. You can spare time..." Su Zhenqi thought for a while and said, "take Jane and the children to play together." Su Junli smiled, but still said, "I have to consult them first!" "Well, well, you can control it yourself!" Su Zhenqi was not smooth under some anger. "Anyway, I can''t control it!" Su Junli smiled at Su Zhenqi and left On the way to the suburban villa, Su Junli called Jian Mo: "is it there in Xiaoyue?" "No, just brought the milk bag to the moistening garden..." Jane Mo said without concealment. Su Jun smiled softly from the corner of his mouth. "Will you get used to living there? If not, I''ll try to find a house nearby... Well, I''ll sell the one in Runze garden!" Jian Mo couldn''t help laughing when Su Junli said, "forget it, it''s too troublesome... What''s more, it''s too deliberate. Instead, she thinks I have something." "Yes." Su Junli answered softly, "I''ve been tired all day today, so you and Xiaojie have a rest earlier..." "Good!" Jane answered and said, "greet my aunt!" "How do you know I''m going to see my mother?" Su Jun asked with an eyebrow. Jane Mo smiled. "You didn''t call me until now, which means you''re entangled in things... You should be on the road now. I think you''re probably going to see your aunt!" "Logical thinking is good," Su Junli smiled. "I''ll reward you for the soup stewed with Xiaojie and sister Hua!" Jane answered, "be careful on the road, good night!" "Good night!" Jane Mo hung up the phone and took Jane Jie into the elevator at the right time... She looked at the rows of numbers, smiled at the bottom of her eyes and pressed the numbers on the top floor. Jian Jie had heard Li Xiaoyue describe the high technology of the house here before he came here. He looked at the rising numbers and asked excitedly, "Mommy, is it great here... Well, is it all voice controlled or breath controlled?" "It means I study design and don''t understand electronics!" Jane Mo shrugged. Her words just fell. Suddenly, Jane Jie''s disdainful eyes came in Standing at the door after four and a half years away, Jane Mo looked at the password lock and suddenly fell into a trance. After waiting for a long time, Jian Mo didn''t press the password. Jian Jie frowned, "Mommy, you won''t tell me the password. Have you forgotten it? Then I really doubt your IQ..." "..." Jian Mo turned his eyes dissatisfied, then raised his hand and pressed the password. Jane Jie''s eyes were bright. "Hey, is it a date?" Jian Mo made a "um" sound, then opened the door and went in... Just when people went in, the light was on all the way, and then Jian Mo''s memory surged back like a tide. No matter what the final result is, the original beauty is always a part of memory... No matter what the taste of memory! When I left, I thought I wouldn''t come back here... When I came back, I found that only when I was relieved can I face everything calmly. Jane Mo is still in her own thoughts. Jane Jie has been walking around the house excitedly In the afternoon, Li Xiaoyue came to the housekeeper to clean it. The bedding was changed. It didn''t look like it had been vacant for a long time. "Mommy," Jane Jie said suddenly, "I can''t imagine that you used to be very rich? The house price here should not be cheap?" Jane Mo withdrew her thoughts. "If you are interested in real estate or marketing, you can estimate for yourself... As for those involving my personal problems," she shook her head, "no comment!" Chien Chieh glanced. "Where do I live?" "Whatever you want!" Jane Mo said and closed the door. "It''s very late today. I''ll report to the company tomorrow morning. You pack your gifts. After lunch, I''ll take you to go through the admission formalities!" ¡°OK£¡¡± Jane Jie responded with a childish but proud voice. "The bathroom is over there. Can you do it yourself?" Jane Mo pointed in the direction of the bathroom. "Of course!" Jianjie shrugged, then went to the suitcase where he packed his clothes, found his laundry and sleepiness, and went to the bathroom. Jian Mo has to go to school in recent years. Although there is no direct conflict in taking care of Jian Jie during her studies, it is difficult to take care of him sometimes... Fortunately, the little guy is proud and independent since childhood. After the age of two, Jian Mo basically doesn''t need to worry about daily life. Watching Jane Jie enter the bathroom, Jane Mo just wanted to put their suitcases in the bedroom, and her mobile phone suddenly rang Because there were few people who knew the new number, she didn''t look at it. She directly pressed the answer button and put it in her ear, "hello?" There was a moment of silence in the mobile phone. Jian Mo frowned and wanted to see who was calling. There was Gu Beichen''s low and magnetic voice, "it''s me!" Chapter 222 Jane Mo''s thoughts froze for a moment and didn''t react. She just asked instinctively, "who are you?" "..." Gu Beichen was depressed, very depressed, "Jian Mo, is it difficult to recognize my voice?" Jane Mo reacted, but wondered in her heart, how did Gu Beichen know her new number? "I can hear it now," said Jane Mo with a laugh. "This is in line with your overbearing president''s setting! Pretending to be hypocritical is not suitable for you!" "..." Gu Beichen choked on Jian Mo''s laughing voice, and said with dissatisfaction on his cold, carved face. "Why do you have my number?" Jane Mo asked suspiciously. Gu Beichen picked a wanton arc at the end of his eyebrow, "you used the number of my information industry. I want to know... Is it difficult?" "..." now Jane Mo was speechless. She doesn''t have any special requirements for the phone number. She left Los Angeles before, because there''s nothing to miss. Her mobile phone number hasn''t been saved since she arrived in London... When she came back, the London number can''t be used, so she did it casually, regardless of where it is! "What can I do for you so late?" Jane Mo asked casually. "Can''t you call if you''re okay?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo twitched uncontrollably at the corner of her mouth, "Mr. Gu, you are so free... Or are you lonely without a woman at night?" "It''s loneliness... Will you accompany me?" Gu Beichen asked along with the words. Jane Mo smiled and laughed with a mockery, "tut Tut, when did Gu''s market get so bad? Why don''t... I''ll introduce some to you later?" "Are you among them?" Gu Beichen continued to ask. "......." Jian Mo said nothing. "Mr. Gu, can you focus on your phone call this evening? You won''t quarrel with me just because you''re bored?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips gradually raised a thin smile, and the eagle''s eyes looked at the front deeply, "Mo''er, you''re back... It''s good!" Jane Mo suddenly frowned. She didn''t know why. She thought Gu Beichen was strange... But she didn''t know what was strange. Gu Beichen looked at Chu Zixiao and took another bottle of wine out of the wine cellar. He said softly, "have a rest early..." he gave a slight meal and put a thin smile on his thin lips, "good night, Mo''er!" When Jian Mo was still in a fog, he had hung up the phone. When Chu Zixiao came over, Gu Beichen just put his mobile phone aside. He looked at it and said, "haven''t you seen this bottle before?" "Just brought it back from England..." Gu Beichen just called Jian mo. although she was a little like an indifferent person to him, he was still very happy because he heard Jian Mo''s voice, and even his speech was a lot easier. Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously, "what about coke?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer. He just raised his eyebrows, took a clean cup and changed the topic, "I heard you have a case against Shaochen?" "Yes." Chu Zixiao answered faintly. After JK, Mo Shaochen didn''t leave Los Angeles Maybe he can''t let go of Shen Chu. Perhaps, he was also disappointed, but saw through the previous persistence. But who knows? Without leaving, Mo Shaochen finally set up a law firm in Los Angeles. Because they are criminal defense lawyers, even if they evade each other, it is obviously impossible to completely avoid each other. "Are you sure?" Gu Beichen asked. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were deep, "from the technical means, it is estimated that this... Is difficult!" Both are famous debates. Although Mo Shaochen was famous early, Chu Zixiao is also the leader of criminal debate. It''s really hard to say who is powerful... It''s really hard to say. However, at the moment, no one thought that a criminal defense case had led some things out, so that... Many things later made them boo and sigh. The next day, the weather in Los Angeles was very shameful, and the air was filled with moisture. It seemed that it was going to rain. "Mommy, remember to bring an umbrella!" Jian Jie has been watching the weather trend for a while holding the tablet. "I guess it''s going to rain before you come back." "Good!" For the words of the little housekeeper, Jane Mo still believes it. Grabbed the folding umbrella and threw it into the bag. Jian Mo stuffed a pair of design drawings into the painting bucket, and then said, "there is a convenience store downstairs. You can handle what you think you need... Well, I''ll go first." "Mommy, be careful on the road!" Jane Jie gave an account of her uneasiness. Jane Mo answered. Taking advantage of Jane Jie''s inattention, she pulled him over and kissed him on his tender little face "Dirty!" Jian Jie rubbed angrily, and the black pupil looked at Jian Mo angrily. With a proud look on her face, Jane Mo tilted her chin, stepped proudly, waved her hand with Jane Jie, and then left This son is very close to her, but because he is too independent, he doesn''t like too close physical contact. Therefore, every time Jane Mo kisses him, his little face will be very gloomy. The high-heeled shoes stepped on the smooth marble floor. Jian Mojia easily entered Lingyu International Center, then entered the elevator and pressed Xiangyu''s floor. Because of the listing, Xiangyu''s scale has expanded a lot. It was supposed to change places, but there was a company upstairs to move. Finally, it simply rented that floor. In this way, the upper and lower floors are enough. The engineering design department moved to the new floor as a whole, which Jane Mo knows. I haven''t come back for several years, but I''ve kept in touch with you... So she''s no stranger at all. With a "Ding" sound, the elevator reached the floor of the engineering design department. At the moment of starting and stepping out of the elevator, Jane Mo suddenly heard several "pops", and suddenly... Colored paper fell from the sky and fell on her body. "Jane Mo, welcome back!" Yu Ziyun and Tang Haoyang stood in front and both said. "Jane designer... Welcome back!" Led by Da Xiong, all the people who knew and didn''t know shouted excitedly. Jian Mo looked at Yu Ziyun and Tang Haoyang, and finally slipped over Daxiong, Ding Dang, Qiao Zirong, Mo Xiaoya, Sun Ke... All of them. A thin layer of water mist filled her eyes in an instant. "You''re like this..." Jane Mo said from her heart, "let me feel that I''m home." "It''s going home. What''s the feeling?" Da Xiong said with an eyebrow. Jane Mo smiled and nodded. "Yes, it''s nice to see everyone..." she said, looking around, "what about the evening?" "Here..." Xiang night came out with flowers in his hand. "Sister Mo, I''m waiting for you to find me!" Then he came forward and hugged Jane mo After more than four years of baptism, everyone has grown up and matured! "Well, welcome and welcome. When Jane Mo is straightened out, we''ll have dinner sometime tomorrow and the day after tomorrow..." Yu Ziyun said with a smile, "what should we do now!" Everyone laughed and just wanted to disperse. The elevator opened in time. "Excuse me, is Jane Mo there?" When they looked back, they saw the courier of a florist holding a bunch of Campanula, looking at them curiously, "please sign for it!" Jane Mo was puzzled. She didn''t know who sent it. She came forward and wanted to sign for it. "Who is so well informed?" Xiangwan said, the sharp eyed one saw the card in the flower, and pulled it out quickly with a mysterious face, "well, let me see who it is..." Chapter 223 Jane Mo doesn''t mind. She still knows her late temperament... Although after several years of precipitation, it''s easy to change her nature! "Welcome back..." Xiangwan said with a mysterious smile, "my Mo''er?" The words fell, and suddenly all the people looked at Jian mo "My Mo''er?" Xiang night deliberately accentuated the word "mine", and then looked at Jian Mo with a gossip face, "sister Mo, tell me, who is it?" Jane Mo frowned slightly. Everyone who knew her called her "Mo Mo", and her relatives called her "Xiao Mo". Only one person called her "Mo Er"... And that person called her last night and said it was nice that she came back? Jane Mo doesn''t know what Gu Beichen is going to do, but she''s not in the mood to guess... Who knows if she has become evil after more than four years. Jian Mo shrugged, "I don''t know..." she knew Gu Beichen didn''t sign when she looked at Xiang night. Afraid of causing unnecessary trouble, she naturally won''t say it. What''s more, I didn''t say it in my marriage before. Now I''ve been divorced for several years, and I still say wool? "Sister mo..." Xiang night was dissatisfied and looked curious under the trend of gossip psychology. Jane Mo smiled, raised her chin slightly, raised her eyebrows and said, "there''s no way. I''m good-looking. There are too many suitors. Everyone can''t guess. I''m tired to death?" After light eh, she was suddenly laughed by her narcissism, which made everyone laugh one after another. However, it is true that Jane Mo looks good. Although everyone laughs, none of them is sarcastic. Xiang night took Jian Mo to her new office. Now she has become the chief designer of Xiangyu and has her own separate design space "Sister Mo, I''m your deputy now!" Xiang night said with a happy face, "Mr. Yu said he would give you an assistant and an internship designer, so that you can take it with you." Jian Mo pursed her lips and smiled, "Mr. Yu, this is an opportunity to squeeze me!" Xiang night smiled, "yes, that''s what we said." After a pause, she continued, "it''s also from our school. I''ll come to practice in two days." "Yes." Jian Mo answered, then explained some things to Xiang Wan, and went to Yu Ziyun''s office, "president Yu." "Sit down!" Yu Ziyun said, pouring a cup of boiled coffee to Jian Mo, "I''m in such a hurry to urge you back. Don''t you have any disgusting thoughts?" Jane Mo shook her head with a smile, "anyway, they all want to come back..." after a pause, she asked, "what does the emperor say this time?" "Because the last club, and now Xiangyu is also a listed company, basically can submit tenders..." Yu Ziyun said with a smile, "the club opened last year. You can look back at your design... Because of that design, the club is very hot." Jane Mo listened and smiled. She was not too proud, and some were just indifferent to her. Seeing her precipitation, Yu Ziyun was more stable than four years ago. Yu Ziyun felt that his original decision was too right. "You should first look at the requirements of the emperor these days. The kick-off meeting will be held on Monday... You just need to fix it these days." "Well, good!" Jian Mo answered, took the information handed over by Yu Ziyun, and then got up and left. The weather outside is getting heavier and heavier. When Jian Mo came out of the company, it began to rain Holding an umbrella all the way back, Jane Jie has packed all her things, and even Jane Mo''s things. "Thank you for the milk bag!" Jane Mo smiled and wanted to go to Jane Jie. Jian Jie stepped back and looked at Jian Mo with disgust. "I''ve bought the dishes. I can''t carry them. I bought a meal. You can do it!" Jian Jie is very smart and has a strong learning ability... However, he is worried about the operation of the kitchen. This Jian Mo looked at the table and couldn''t help thinking of the first meal Gu Beichen cooked for her that year Suddenly, Jane Mo trembled all over and felt cold for a while when she thought of the smell! Quickly change your home clothes, then cook and eat... Everything is done in an hour. "Change your clothes and I''ll take you to go through the admission formalities!" Jane Mo said as she walked to the bedroom "By the way," Jane Jie suddenly remembered, "when I just cleaned up your house, I found that there were many luxuries from four years ago in your wardrobe... This is nothing. The most important thing is that there are a lot of jewelry!" "..." Jane Mo grinned secretly and forgot this for a while, "that..." "You don''t need to explain to me what happened before me." Jane Jie looked calm. "I just tell you that if you don''t like those, you''d better sell them... We''re also a lot of living expenses! You''re so poor that you deduct my pocket money every time!" "You said the ultimate goal is pocket money?" Jian Mo and Jian Jie confronted each other, "what about those things... In a sense, they are not mine, so they can''t be sold!" Of course, Jian Jie doesn''t really want to sell, but just wants to find something from Jian Mo''s expression... Unfortunately, although his mommy is a little stupid, her mind is so good. Jian Mo took Jian Jie to a famous kindergarten nearby. Because of the history of foreign life and a series of IQ tests, the headmaster accepted it without saying a word! Nothing unexpected, very smooth. "Class starts on Monday. Remember to get to school on time!" The teacher looked at Jian Jie''s handsome and lovely appearance and liked it very much. Jane Jie nodded Mengmeng, smiled sweetly and said, "thank you, teacher. Goodbye, teacher!" The teacher''s heart was melted by his clever appearance. He looked at Jian Mo with envy. How could she give birth to such a clever son However, only Jian Mo knows how shameful Jian Jie is to sell cute. After saying goodbye to the teacher, Jane Mo decided to go to the parking lot first and drive back the "broken car" in Gu Beichen''s eyes. It''s always easier to have a car. "Master, I''ll get the car!" Jane Mo pointed to the white modern. "Is that car yours?" The repairman''s eyes were bright. He nodded suspiciously when he saw Jian Mo, and then asked in surprise, "Miss, I especially want to know what you think?" "Huh?" Jane Mo was confused by his question. The repairman sighed, "sometimes I really don''t understand you rich people... This outfit is too low-key and thorough!" He said, shook his head, sighed, and turned out the bill, "Hello, a total of 10035!" Poof Jian Mo choked directly by his saliva. "Master, are you right? My new car comes down at this price... You have to maintain it!" "The engine is Ferrari FXX, Pirelli''s strongest grip tire, and the world''s top traffic jam braking system..." at the right time, Jane Jie''s childish voice came. He talked about the parts in the car, looked at Jane Mo and said very seriously, "Mommy, in addition to this coat, even if the current market price of your car is more than 3 million!" "..." Jane Mo stared at her for a moment, "how is it possible?" Chapter 224 "Children know a lot!" The mechanic watched Jane Jie whistle. Jane just shrugged. "Mommy, don''t you feel like driving by yourself?" Jane Mo shook her head and suddenly remembered that once she felt that the inner ring of her tire was different, but she didn''t know where it was different Some people don''t understand. Jian Mo found that she had to pay for the maintenance of the car for her savings and stock dividends in the past four years. Jane Mo felt that her heart was bleeding, so she could only pick up the car by card, and then drove the legendary car with low-key luxury, so she planned to go to the supermarket to supply it first However, Jane Mo still couldn''t figure out when her car was refitted all the way? Of course, she is not stupid enough to think that this is Gu Beichen''s masterpiece It''s not a day or two for that coquettish man to dislike her driving this 100000 yuan car. Thinking like this, Jane Mo didn''t tangle much. It was more than four years ago, and her tangle was useless "Mommy," said Jane Jie, holding the cart and pointing to the detergent, "all these things at home have expired and need to be bought again!" Jane Mo is still hurting her money, and her mood is particularly not beautiful. "I knew I wouldn''t send it for maintenance... It''s better to buy a new one!" "That''s different. The braking system of this car is first-class, especially the tire''s grip performance..." Jian Jie looked at Jian Mo contemptuously. "In some special cases, its value will be fully reflected!" Jane Mo is not in the mood to argue with Jane Jie at the moment. For a son who began to like reading car magazines last year, she doesn''t think she has the ability to speak up to him. Jian Mo, reminded by Jian Jie, bought a cart of things all the way to check out. At the right time, the mobile phone rang, and she subconsciously took out... It was a text message sent by an unnamed number. ¡ª¡ªShall we have dinner together in the evening? Jian Mo was stunned and then reacted that it was Gu Beichen''s number. After he called last night, she didn''t save his number. After all, we don''t know each other very well now Jane Mo didn''t want to go back. Finally, she thought it was too deliberate. She simply replied: Mr. Gu, I''m afraid there''s no time at night. The beauty has an appointment! Gu Beichen looked at the text message replied by Jian Mo and frowned slightly. His cold face was covered with haze in an instant. Susan knocked on the door and came in, put the documents on her desk, looked after Beichen and looked at her mobile phone all the time. Her face was a little bad. She couldn''t help wondering, "Chen Shao, there''s still an hour left for the meeting with JK. Over there, ask you if you''ll attend today?" "No!" Gu Beichen said with a bad face, "I need everything. Do I take their salary for them?" As soon as Susan heard this, she had determined that Gu Beichen was in a bad mood at the moment. She couldn''t help wondering who was so capable. "OK, I see!" Susan answered and turned out of the office. Gu Beichen sent a text message to Jian Mo: in the next few days, if I ask you out for dinner, are they all beautiful women? Jian Mo just settled the account, and then replied decisively: why don''t you... Mr. Gu try? Gu Beichen''s mood is even worse. He knows Jian Mo better. She replied that he is unlikely to make an appointment... Or even be laughed at by her. Of course, Gu Beichen is not afraid of ridicule, but is very angry that Jian Mo is not sensitive to his thanks Xiao Jing listened to Susan when he came back from his work. Gu Beichen''s face was the same as the weather, with continuous rain. "It must be Miss Jane!" Xiao Jing said without thinking, "now there is no one else but Chen Shao who can change her face." "I think it''s almost the same..." Susan raised her eyebrows. "Seriously, I think Chen Shao deserves it... People don''t cherish it in front of them. People are gone and stupid!" She snorted, "do you men really think women can''t live without you?" "..." Xiao Jing choked indistinctly, "please don''t overturn a boat with one pole!" Susan glanced at Xiao Jing, "how can I get along with Chen Shao all day?" She hissed and began to deal with the work. Xiao Jing rubbed his nose a little boring, and then went to Gu Beichen, "Chen Shao, I found it!" "Why?" Gu Beichen put down his mobile phone and looked at Xiao Jing. "Gu muhuai was plotted by a lover," said Xiao Jing, indignant. "It''s really thanks to his great life... He didn''t die!" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil dimmed, and then returned to calm. He said gently with his thin lips: "it''s just hiding and cultivating self-cultivation, otherwise... How can I not find it?" Xiao Jing is a little depressed. Foreign countries are no better than domestic ones. Some complex forces are inextricably linked. Moreover, Gu muhuai''s power can''t be underestimated. Although he lost that war to Chen Shao, he may make a comeback at any time. Gu Beichen''s thin lips shallow raised an arc, "what a coincidence..." "Huh?" Xiao Jing didn''t react. Just listen to Gu Beichen said: "Dad and mom are coming back, and Jane Mo is coming back... Then at this time, I found his trace..." he smiled, but it was very light, and that smile was frozen in the corners of his mouth, not reaching the bottom of his eyes. When Gu Beichen mentioned this, Xiao Jing immediately felt that it was not easy... Although Gu muhuai''s mind has always been not simple. ¡­¡­ Since she only started work on Monday, Jian Mo is relatively free these two days in addition to looking at the information of the high-end community that the emperor wants to invest in. In the evening, Jane Mo cooked at home and called Su Junli and Li Xiaoyue to eat at home. For more than four years abroad, due to the lack of spices, the taste of food is naturally not as comfortable as that in China... In order to let Jian Jie enjoy the serious family meal, Jian Mo worked hard at night. Su Junli couldn''t help frowning when listening to what Jian Jie said about the car... If it''s really the same as what Xiao Jie said, according to the time, it seems that it was the last time Mo Mo had a car accident and he was blackmailed... Did Gu Beichen do it? "Uncle, who do you think modified this for Mommy?" Jane Jie asked curiously. Su Junli knew that Jian Mo didn''t think much for the time being. Jian Jie knew that his father was Gu Beichen. He pretended not to know and shook his head. "I think if you want to know, it''s faster to start from your mommy." "Mommy won''t say..." Jane Jie''s heart is like a mirror. Su Junli smiled, "it seems that you can only continue to be curious..." "Eat!" Li Xiaoyue brought the food out of the kitchen and said to Jian Jie, "Jie Shao, wash your hands with your second mother!" Jane Jie answered the voice and got up Jane Mo brought up the soup, "Jun Li, eat!" "Good!" Su Jun left and just wanted to get up and go to the table. At the right time, the doorbell rang. Jane Mo slapped her eyes blankly, "who?" She looked at Su Junli in a dull way. They just came back. There can be no guests. The talent is Thinking, Jane Mo frowned and opened the door... But when she saw Gu Beichen standing at the door, her eyes widened in an instant! At the right time, I heard Jian Jie''s voice in the room: "are there any guests?" Chapter 225 Jane Mo''s heart suddenly "clattered". Although she didn''t think she could never be found, she didn''t think she would fall into the battle for her son so soon? "Don''t you call me in?" Gu Beichen slightly raised his eyebrows, and his voice was deep and magnetic. After passing here at night, I drove in for no reason... I found that the light was on. Thinking that Jian Mo would still like to live here, Gu Beichen couldn''t help being happy and came up directly... However, when the password prompt was wrong, his happy mood was half cold again. "Mo Mo, who is it?" Su Jun asked from his warm mouth. Because Jian Mo only opened the door to a body position, when he saw Gu Beichen, he subconsciously didn''t open it again. Due to the angle problem, Gu Beichen couldn''t see the scene inside. However, first the child''s voice, then Su Junli''s voice... This is enough to make Gu Beichen very uncomfortable. "You eat first!" Jane Mo turned back and said, and then the man had gone out and closed the door. Jane Jie was so curious, "Uncle away, Mommy is very strange... So, there are men outside!" As he said this, he hoped Su Jun would go and find out, so that he could see who it was. Su Junli is a minor in psychology. In addition, he has a tacit understanding with Jian Mo in recent years. Just looking at Jian Mo''s behavior... He guesses that most of the people outside are Gu Beichen. "Let''s eat first..." Su Junli rubbed Jian Jie''s head. "Don''t worry too much about adults!" Jian Jie was a little dissatisfied, but he didn''t say anything... Just, his black eyes couldn''t help looking at the door, as if he could see something. "Your beauty has an appointment with Su Junli?" Gu Beichen didn''t let Jian Mo enter the door directly. He was a little sad. Jane Mo smiled and raised her eyebrows, "otherwise?" "Gu Beichen......" "Mr. Gu, I don''t know you''re here..." Jane Mo interrupted Gu Beichen''s question and asked, "you didn''t come to collect the house? How can you say that you gave it to me at the beginning, and now you''re too stingy to collect it?" "Who said I came to collect the house?" Gu Beichen felt that he used to like Jian Mo''s mouth running the train, but he was still very ill. Now looking at her as if she didn''t mean it, he couldn''t block it. "What are you doing here?" Jane asked with a dull face. Gu Beichen was also stunned by the question. Yes, what is he doing here? "Let me see why the lady has an appointment, and the lights are on at home..." Gu Beichen said. Jian Mo smiled. "Mr. Gu, no one stipulates that... There is an appointment... Must be an offer outside?" She raised her eyebrows. "Isn''t it convenient to make an appointment at home?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes suddenly became familiar, "about at home..." his voice was slow and dangerous, "convenient?" Finally, with a light sigh, there is a kind of warning that if Jane Mo''s answer is exceptional, he can crush the woman on the spot! Jane Mo swallowed it secretly. Seriously, Gu Beichen was still very afraid if she sank her face However, she was afraid to return. Jane Mo didn''t show it on her face, "yes!" She slightly picked her chin and looked very playful because of her short hair. Gu Beichen''s breathing was a little heavy. His eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and then gritted his teeth and asked, "Jane Mo, if you like Su Junli so much, why should you have other people''s children?" Jane was stunned, and then smiled enchanting, "Mr. Gu, can you manage it?" "..." Gu Beichen choked again by her simple words. He suddenly found that he was really wrong now, so that he couldn''t stand what he said and did! "Jane Mo, you are cruel!" Gu Beichen put down a sentence angrily, and then turned and left. Looking at Gu Beichen angrily press the elevator, then go in and watch the elevator close... Jane Mo is suddenly a little confused and funny! Is she cruel? She''ll be cruel if he doesn''t mind her business? Jane Mo tilted her mouth and turned to press the password Then she suddenly found that the password was wrong? "Impossible..." Jane Mo was confused and pressed again, but it was still wrong! The password was set by Gu Beichen later. The time of their meeting anniversary can still be opened when they come back from the supermarket? Jane Mo pressed again, but it was still wrong! Well, she gave up... And rang the doorbell! "It must be Mommy..." Jane Jie said when Su Jun was confused. "Mo Mo can''t open the door himself?" While Su Junli looked at Jian Jie funny, the man had got up. Jian Jie was helpless. "The password is the same as before. In order to prevent theft, theft and sex wolves... I just changed the password." His old God said, "but I haven''t had time to tell mommy yet!" "..." Su Jun couldn''t help laughing. As he opened the door, he said, "is it very kind of Mo Mo to have you, a son who broke his heart for her?" Li Xiaoyue has laughed to death, "Jie Shao, this is a high-end community, so you don''t need to prevent theft and theft... But can you prevent the sex wolf?" Jian Jie looked at Li Xiaoyue with some disdain, "Er Ma, I''m taking precautions!" He hasn''t found his father yet! I don''t know if my father can be with Mommy... He must first prevent possible things from happening! However, Jane Jie didn''t think of it at the moment... Because he changed the password and prevented his own father first! Paradise night. As soon as Li Yunze got off the operating table, he was called by someone who took his life in a series. Looking at Gu Beichen''s gloomy appearance, he couldn''t help laughing, "are you playing deep again?" Gu Beichen glanced sideways at him, then took the cup and poured him wine. "I have another operation to do tomorrow morning. I can''t touch wine!" Li Yunze brought himself a drink and then asked, "I heard that Jane Mo is back?" When he asked about the exit, he looked at Gu Beichen with a teasing look in his eyes, "I heard you still have a child?" "When did you become so gossip?" Gu Beichen snorted coldly, "have you heard? Hum!" "There''s no way. Su Junli returned to China for development. Jinxi was crazy... And then he nagged me several times!" Li Yunze said with a smile, "what did I say? I didn''t try to catch up at the beginning. Now it''s su Junli''s woman or something!" "Li Yunze, you can shut up!" Gu Beichen said coldly, "I asked you to drink with me. You can not drink the wine, but shut your mouth to me!" Li Yunze smiled, "unhappy? I''m going to catch up if I''m unhappy..." Gu Beichen put the glass on the table with a bang, because the strength was too strong, and the goblet cracked from it. "Tut Tut," Li Yunze shook his head, "you can''t play with your temper here!" Gu Beichen sank his face and said, "I''m going to chase..." Chapter 226 Li Yunze was stunned and reacted for a long time. Finally, he laughed, "Gu Beichen, I see... What''s the difference between Shen Chu and Jian Mo?" Referring to Shen Chu, Gu Beichen''s face couldn''t help getting heavier. "During the five years since Shen Chu left, you and Jian Mo got married. While Jian Mo left you for more than four years, you didn''t even have an affair..." Li Yunze said as if he had discovered the new world, "When Shen Chu came back, you haven''t been enthusiastic for two days! When Jian Mo came back, he didn''t see your enthusiasm... However, you put on a clear look of abandoning men. If you let the Los Angeles media see it, you can''t scare many people into thinking that the world is coming to an end." Gu Beichen snorted coldly and didn''t say anything He is Jane Eyre, and there is nothing to admit. Don''t tell me that I didn''t know it was her who was in Sofia Hotel that year, so I''m not interested in her anymore. Later I learned that he was stuck in the throat. Want to find her but dare not, afraid to destroy her happiness. He didn''t look for her, but he couldn''t let go for more than four years I "met" her in England a few days ago and learned that she had been bitten by a scum man again. He was about to be beaten to death... At the beginning, she was a bit overbearing. Even if she didn''t like him, at least she wouldn''t get hurt! Seeing that Gu Beichen was really in a bad mood, Li Yunze also restrained, but he joked: "let''s not say that Jian Mo now has a su Junli around... Even if they don''t call for so long, Beichen, now Jian Mo is buying one and getting one free. Do you want to be a father?" "Can you control it?" Gu Beichen used Jian Mo''s tone to him, "I like being a father, can''t I?" Li Yunze shrugged. "I can''t control... Just be happy. Grandma Gu wants to have a grandson anyway." He smiled and said, "but uncle and aunt are coming back. Do they want you to raise sons for others?" Gu Beichen sank his face. "The problem now is not my parents, okay?" "That''s right..." Li Yunze really didn''t want to laugh, but he couldn''t help it. "Your problem now is whether you can do it or not!" Looking at Li Yunze''s look of a bad friend, Gu Beichen snorted coldly, "so happy, I wish you to turn back and be a father!" Li Yunze looked sad, "don''t worry, I will never let myself fall into such a dilemma." It''s just that the two men who live at the top of their lives can''t imagine at the moment... Things are unpredictable. If they come out to mix, they will have to pay it back sooner or later! The next day, the drizzle was still falling. Because the time difference has not been adjusted, Jane Mo didn''t go to bed until midnight. She couldn''t get up at all in the morning. Jian Jie pushed the door to see Jian Mo, and finally closed the door gently. Then he changed his clothes and went downstairs to buy some breakfast Before he left, Jane Mo''s cell phone rang. Jane Mo frowned a little annoyed, but she didn''t open her eyes. However, the phone kept ringing as if she didn''t answer In the end, Jane Mo grabbed the mobile phone with some anger, and picked it up without looking at who it was. Then she asked angrily, "hello?" "Good morning, Mo''er!" At the other end of the phone, Gu Beichen''s low and magnetic voice was like a cello song in the rain. It was charming and calmed people all at once. "Good morning..." Jane Mo said subconsciously. Gu Beichen smiled at his thin lips, "do you have time to enjoy dinner tonight?" Jane Mo turned over and her drowsiness had been eliminated. "Since you woke me up so early, I''m not in a good mood... So I''m not free!" "Well, it seems that I can only make an appointment tomorrow!" Gu Beichen said faintly. "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "feel free, bye!" She didn''t give Gu Beichen a chance to talk, so she hung up the phone. Jian Mo didn''t think too much about Gu Beichen''s words However, what she didn''t expect was that she would be woken up by Gu Beichen''s morningcall every morning a few days before Monday! It''s like two people hugging each other and sleeping before. Say good morning to each other! "Mommy, you look a little ugly!" Jane Jie looked at Jane Mo with the same face as the cloudy weather outside for several days. "No one is in a good mood..." Jian Mo is very depressed and wakes up by Gu Beichen the last morning before going to work. This is not the main thing. The main thing is that Gu Beichen''s pit father goods wound her in, and finally turned over the old account! She really hasn''t seen such a stingy person as Gu Beichen That time I found her in an hour. He said she wanted to promise him one thing, but she never fulfilled it Well, she''s a man of her word. Just have dinner with him! "Mommy is not at home at night. Do you want your second mother to come with you or go to your second mother?" Asked Jane mo. Chien Chieh dropped his lips and then asked, "what are you going to do in the evening?" "Pay the debt!" Jane Mo said angrily. Jian Jie noticed Jian Mo''s expression and was relieved to see her angry face. "I''ll wait for my second mother... But you have to pick me up at 10 o''clock." "OK, I''ll pick you up when I''m finished!" Jane Mo said. Jian Jie nodded, took out his small schoolbag, packed some books he liked, and planned to pass the boring waiting time. One big and one small here has thoughts, but the top floor of emperor group is filled with joy. "At a glance, Chen Shao smiles so cheaply. It must be Miss Jane who looks at him and plans to appease him..." Xiao Jing tut said. Susan agreed. "As a woman, I hope Miss Jane stood Chen Shao up directly today!" Xiao Jing looked at Susan. "You''re too cruel... As Chen Shao''s secretary, are you really good?" "I said, I''m a woman!" Susan raised her eyebrows. Xiao Jing smiled, "but... I like it!" Susan gave a "bang" and looked contemptuously at Xiao Jing. Gu Beichen didn''t know that the right and left hands around him were arranging themselves for self entertainment... He was looking forward to having dinner with Jian Mo in the evening. Location: the second anniversary of their meeting, which is also the first restaurant they ate out after their marriage. Time: Gu Beichen felt that he had never taken the initiative to wait for someone... Today, he sat in the restaurant more than an hour in advance. "Chen Shao," the restaurant manager took the menu prepared, "this is the menu for the evening." Gu Beichen took it and looked at it carefully. He determined that it was all Jane Mo''s favorite, and nodded At the beginning of the drizzle in Los Angeles, Gu Beichen was a little nervous as time approached, and his thin lips gradually tightened into a straight line. Suddenly, a lamp slipped by and Gu Beichen looked around... He saw the familiar white Hyundai parked in the parking space. Gu Beichen''s thin lips gradually raised a thin smile. When watching the beautiful and capable figure get off the car with an umbrella, a smile gradually appeared in the depths of the eagle''s eyes from inside to outside Chapter 227 Jian Mo stood in front of the car wearing a dark green Fei leaf short sleeved shirt, a pair of beige seven point pencil pants, and a pair of five centimeter high thin heels... A beautiful short hair became particularly charming under the light. "Welcome!" Jane Mo smiled and nodded to the waiter who opened the door, and then followed the leader to Gu Beichen Gu Beichen''s sight is deep and powerful. He knew this woman was beautiful before, but he never knew... She with short hair is even more breathtaking. However, he still likes her long hair... Well, it''s not that there''s any long hair complex, but he thinks she''ll be better at that time than she is now! "Mr. Gu chartered the venue?" Jane Mo sat down opposite and then looked at the window, "but... It seems a little too dangerous at the window." "Why, afraid of exposure?" The voice of Gu Beichen gently overflowed. Jane Mo smiled and looked confident, "afraid of being said that the hidden rules are true!" "Will you be ruled by the unspoken rules?" Gu Beichen slightly picked the tail of his eyebrow and asked. In the depths of the ink pupil, there was a gradual expectation. Jane Mo smiled more and more brightly. However, there was not much emotion in such a smile, but it didn''t matter. "Only those who don''t have self-confidence are afraid that others say she depends on hidden rules..." she slightly picked her chin. "I was trained under the scandal. Are you right? President gu!" Jian Mo left one "Gu Zong" and another "Gu Zong". Gu Beichen was upset... But he couldn''t refute it. Can''t Jane Mo really call him "ex husband"? That''s more ironic! The soft music echoed in the restaurant. After Jane Mo came, the waiter had given the two people red wine. Then, the first plate and the main plate began to rise slowly. "Emperor''s new apartment building, Xiangyu who will come?" Gu Beichen asked, but his eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply. Jane Mo opened her mouth lightly and said angrily, "I''m not very interested in food!" Then she lifted her eyes with a smile at the corner of her mouth and looked at Gu Beichen, "I hope the second cooperation will be happy!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and was more confident and happy than four years ago. He took a glass of red wine, took a sip and said softly, "you knew you would get it?" Jane Mo smiled, "wait and see!" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is getting deeper and deeper, and the smile on the edge of his thin lips is also full of charm. "Mo''er," he shouted deeply, his eyes coagulated with Jian Mo and said slowly, "I hope you will amaze everyone''s eyes again..." Then he raised his cup slightly, and the smile from the corners of his mouth spread to the fundus of his eyes and fainted! A meal, no imagined coyness and embarrassment, as if they were friends they hadn''t seen for a long time... But that''s all! "Not to your taste?" Gu Beichen frowned when he found that Jane Mo ate very little. Jian Mo shrugged. "After four years of Western food, I''m a little bored." Gu Beichen suddenly got up and said, "go!" "Where are you going?" Jane Mo has been pulled up by Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen just smiled at Jian Mo, "go to a place that women are said to like... Especially with a big appetite!" Jane Mo was stunned. Gu Beichen held hands and walked out. For a moment, she forgot to break free! Jian Mo was directly pushed into the car after Gu Beichen opened the door. Until she sat in the car, she was still a little confused... When did Gu Beichen become so noisy? Why is this increasingly inconsistent with his age and the setting of the domineering President? Gu Beichen closed the door, then bypassed the front of the car and went to the driver''s seat Looking at Jian Mo, Gu Beichen looked at him suspiciously. His eyes were getting darker and his thin lips were smeared. If there was a smile, he said, "it''s not easy to have a meal. You always have to be full, don''t you?" After a beautiful tail flick, the car drove into the traffic flow. At the same time, at the intersection about 50 meters away, a reporter with a professional camera slowly put down the camera and said, "it''s a pity that I didn''t take the woman''s face..." Although a little annoyed, the reporter''s face is still very happy... Because Gu Beichen has rarely had an affair with a woman since the JK incident. Most of them are also groundless. It is the first time in recent years that there can be direct characters like today. The drizzle has stopped, but the moisture in the air is still very heavy... I''m afraid it has to fall! Jane Mo doesn''t know where Gu Beichen is taking her, but she doesn''t ask... She still knows Gu Beichen''s temperament. Sometimes she''s a little coquettish! However, when she saw the car stop near Hualin night market, Jane Mo said she was still thrilled! "Night market?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously. Gu Beichen nodded, "well, what''s the problem?" "The problem is no..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth, and then smiled falsely, "but although I''m not afraid of gossip, it doesn''t mean I want to have an affair with President gu!" When she said this, Gu Beichen felt a little lost, but think about it... If he and Jian Mo appeared here publicly, I don''t know how to write about her in the report? "What do you want to eat? Buy it!" Gu Beichen asked. Jian Mo smiled and looked at Gu Beichen''s high-end custom-made handmade suit, and then at the noisy environment of Hualin night market. It was very disobedient! "No one can go to the night market without wearing a suit?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were sharp, and he saw Jian Mo''s smile at once. He was very dissatisfied. Jane Mo skimmed her mouth and said casually, "fry rice noodles!" Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, "you wait for me in the car..." when he said, he had loosened his seat belt, and then turned and got out of the car. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s back through the windshield and suddenly smiled at the corners of her mouth Four years of precipitation, no matter how much love is slowly consumed by other things. Once, she also attached to this man, and even... Fell in love with this man. But now, love is not all of her How moved would she be if she put it four years ago today? The car seemed to be a small world isolated from the world, but Gu Beichen walked into the busiest place in Los Angeles at night for the first time Taking out his mobile phone, Gu Beichen dialed Li Jinxi, "which is the best fried rice noodles in Hualin?" "Ah, why are you asking?" Li Jinxi was tired of eating grapes in her husband''s arms. When she received the call, she smiled and asked, "won''t you tell me to buy it for me?" "You think too much..." Gu Beichen sneered, "speed!" Li Jinxi curled his lips, said which one and the general location, hung up the phone discontentedly, and then said in doubt: "Gu Beichen, is this a draft? In the evening, he went to the night market to buy fried rice noodles?" A man put on a ruffian smile at the corner of his mouth, "it''s greasy!" "Rub" for a while, Li Jinxi sat up, looked at her husband and asked, "woman?" A man smiled deeper at the corners of his mouth, but shrugged his shoulders and said, "Gu Beichen I know... Never goes to a place like a night market!" Chapter 228 Gu Beichen soon found the shop where he fried rice noodles. He saw a long line from a distance. He couldn''t help frowning slightly... And then lined up behind. Took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to Jane Mo: there are a lot of people. I have to wait. Jane Mo''s message came back quickly: forget it, I''m just talking casually. Don''t buy it. Gu Beichen frowned: just wait! Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s text message, but glanced at it helplessly. Then she didn''t return. She just created a new contact for this number... President gu! A title doesn''t mean anything, but occasionally it represents the state of mind "Eh, isn''t that Gu Beichen?" Suddenly, a voice came from the crowd. "Do you look alike? How could Gu Beichen come here?" "Also..." Gu Beichen ignored it and just followed the queue indifferently However, such voices gradually increased and attracted the attention of the people in front. There was a man who looked about 40. He was almost in front of him. Looking back, he saw that it was Gu Beichen, and then ran over, "Mr. Gu, I didn''t expect to see you here." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and the eagle''s eyes looked at the middle-aged man indifferently, without a sense of familiarity. Naturally, the middle-aged man didn''t expect Gu Beichen to recognize him. He just said, "I came to buy fried rice noodles for my wife. The time is not very fast... I''ll change my position with Gu." "No, I''ll just line up." Gu Beichen said softly. The middle-aged man smiled, "I''m going to pick up my wife from work later. There''s still some time. I just changed my position. I should be hot when I took it..." Listening to him, Gu Beichen looked at the time again. For fear that Jian Mo had waited too long, he finally nodded, "thank you!" The middle-aged man was slightly stunned... Smiled, shook his head and changed his position with Gu Beichen. However, he didn''t expect that Gu Beichen, who is cold and cruel in the legend, also had such a moment of being close to the people. What he didn''t expect was that he lined up for his wife to buy fried rice noodles and pick her up from work... Gu Beichen made a good impression in his heart, so that in an event, he thanked and entrusted the blessing of loving his wife! Gu Beichen bought fried rice noodles back more than half an hour later. He didn''t care about the agitation caused in the night market As soon as Jane Mo smelled the taste, she knew it was the hottest one in the night market. She didn''t want to eat it at all. Suddenly, the taste aroused greedy insects After eating, Jane Mo looked satisfied. "How do you know this family?" After she asked, she replied, "often buy it for women?" "Buy it for the first time!" Gu Beichen suddenly said with a gloomy face. In the past, even if Li Jinxi wanted to eat, if Xiao Jing wasn''t there, he wouldn''t buy it. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen with a gloomy face and said with a smile, "I told you not to go. You have to go... A place like the night market is not suitable for you!" Gu Beichen''s heart is very stuffed. At a glance, he knows that Jane Mo will be wrong To explain, Gu Beichen thought it was too deliberate and simply gave up. If you understand wrong, you can understand wrong. Who makes her a little stupid? However, just be stupid in front of him... Gu Beichen thought so, and Jian Mo, who ate very delicious, didn''t know at all. "Alas, it''s still delicious in China." Jane Mo sighed and continued to talk greedily. Gu Beichen looked at her with deep eyes and saw the satisfaction on her face. The thin lips could not help but gradually turn into a satisfied smile "Mo''er..." "Huh?" Jane Mo answered subconsciously. Gu Beichen smiled, "it''s all right..." Jane Mo glanced at him and continued to eat with some dissatisfaction. "Turn around and bring the milk bag..." she said, and she suddenly turned her mouth. Milk bags must be disgusted... Say these things are not clean! The haughty appearance of that body is inherited from Gu Beichen, isn''t it? Just thinking, Jane Mo''s cell phone rang... She hurriedly stuffed the mouth on the chopsticks into her mouth. At the right time, Gu Beichen reached over and Jian Mo subconsciously put the lunch box into his hand. Everything was natural. She took out her cell phone and said "milk bag". She picked it up, "what''s the matter, huh?" "You said come and pick me up at ten, dear mommy. There are ten minutes and ten o''clock. In view of my visual inspection, you are going to break your promise..." Jane Jie''s calm and organized voice came from the other end. Jane Mo fanned her eyes, put down her mobile phone and looked at the time. Sure enough... It''s ten o''clock in ten minutes. "I''ll be there now!" After Jane Mo said something, she hung up the phone. "Please take me back to pick up the car." "Let Xiao Jing drive back and I''ll send you back directly..." Gu Beichen said with a little thought in his heart. Jane Mo shook her head. "I''m going to Xiaoyue... It''s near the restaurant." Gu Beichen had to give up, handed the fried rice noodles to Jian Mo, started the car and drove to the restaurant. Jane Mo didn''t waste it. Gu Beichen was driving and she was eating fried rice noodles... Maybe the two were too close before. Now, although she has become the most familiar stranger, she doesn''t behave too rigidly. When she arrived at the restaurant, Jian Mo fried rice noodles were eaten, "thank you for your hospitality, Mr. Gu..." and she got out of the car in a hurry. But before the door was closed, she suddenly remembered something and leaned over and said, "well, there''s no need for morningcall in the future... Bye!" Jane Mo got up, closed the door and went to her car. All her movements were natural and unrestrained without any stagnation. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s natural and unrestrained figure through the windshield, and then watched the car start and drive into the traffic flow. He couldn''t help whispering: "Su Jun has been around you for more than four years, but you have given birth to someone else''s child... Jian Mo, since he is not your last, I won''t let you go!" The soft but low voice echoed in the narrow car space. Gu Beichen is not a person who doesn''t know what he wants, nor a person who will wait for the rabbit! At the beginning of the struggle for the emperor, he has become a man who will do anything to achieve his goal. But only... On Jane Morse, he finally gave in! Just because he loves this woman and is afraid to hurt The black car is driving on the wet road, the street lights meet, and the neon is far behind the body Gu Beichen''s slender hand gently held the steering wheel, and a smile was always on one side of his thin lip. The night is intoxicated under the neon, and the morning comes in the hazy drizzle Just when it was just a little dawn in the East, the Los Angeles morning post was distributing newspapers. "There''s Gu Beichen''s headline..." the newspaper leader exclaimed, and then hurriedly said, "give me more stacks!" As soon as the people who came to get the newspaper heard about Gu Beichen, they all shouted to take more... Everyone knows that as long as they get Gu Beichen, the sales will be good. "Chen Shao hasn''t had an affair for four years and is suspected to be guarded by the east palace?" Someone read the headline, "Chen Shaoyin''s wife exposed?" The man stared in amazement, "my God, this woman is Chen''s youngest wife? The news is too hot!" Chapter 229 On Monday morning, because of the headlines of the Los Angeles morning post, Los Angeles burned again in the drizzly morning of early summer Gu Beichen, who has been silent for several years and has no scandal, suddenly made headlines, not because of the emperor group, but gossip... This is enough to make everyone crazy! Jian Mo went to work on the first day after returning home. Her biological clock has turned around these days because of Gu Beichen''s "intimate" wake-up service. I made breakfast in the morning, ate it with the milk bag, sent him to the kindergarten, and then I went back to the company. "Sister Mo!" Just as Jian Mo opened the glass door of the office, she saw a girl with a very sweet and baby face greet her with a smile, "are you talking to Xiao ran, an internship design assistant?" Mu Xiaoran nodded, "well, please give me more advice in the future!" Jian Mo smiled with a kind face. "If you have problems in the future, you can find me or someone from the design department. As long as you are willing to learn, someone will be willing to teach..." "Well, I will study hard." Mu Xiaoran nodded with a smile, "sister Mo, I''ll go out first... You have something to call me." "OK..." Jane answered. Mu Xiaoran just went out. At the right time, Xiang night and Ding Dang came in The two looked strange, and the smile at the corners of their mouths was ambiguous under gossip. "The emperor''s meeting is at 10:30. We leave at 9:30!" Jane Mo thought they came in to ask this. As she spoke, she copied the data in the USB flash drive into the computer. "Oh..." Xiang night answered, then rubbed forward and put the newspaper in front of Jian Mo, "sister Mo, can you explain this to us?" "What?" Jane Mo asked and looked down at the newspaper. The encouraging headline made people feel cold. Jane Mo frowned slightly and then looked at the report and an enlarged picture In the picture, Gu Beichen opened the door and gently held her back waiting for her to get on the bus. It was photographed last night. According to the report, Gu Beichen hasn''t had an affair with a woman for more than four years. He is suspected to have reformed and was accepted by his wife... And this woman is the legendary Chen''s youngest wife! Jane Mo suddenly wants to laugh... When the two people didn''t divorce before, they weren''t photographed. Why didn''t anyone think she was Gu Beichen''s wife? Now that I''m divorced, I''m said to be Gu Beichen''s wife... The media''s ability to look at pictures and speak is simply too strong. "Sister Mo, come on, is it you?" Asked Xiang Wanyi, who asked for gossip. Jane was calm. "No!" "No?" Ding Dang said hurriedly, "after our research, it must be you..." said, and she raised her eyebrows, "Mo Mo, just say, are you Chen Shao''s wife?" "No!" Jane Mo replied. She''s not really Xiangwan said, "sister Mo, you''re dishonest..." Jian Mo was a little embarrassed. "You see, I used to say I was Gu Beichen''s wife. You don''t believe it. Now I say no... you don''t believe it." Her face was wide open. "Just say it. Whether you want it or not, I''ll follow your wishes!" Xiangwan and Dingdang couldn''t see anything wrong from Jian Mo''s face. Finally, the two looked at each other with doubts, and heard Xiangwan mutter, "even if you''re not Chen Shao''s wife, there must be an affair between you..." On the day sister Mo left, Gu Beichen came to the company to find sister mo... That''s not a business at all! With the careful thinking of two curious babies, Jian Mo and his party went to the emperor''s kick-off meeting on behalf of Xiangyu. This is the architectural design of the whole real estate. Phase I is the focus of the real estate. Several companies with architectural design qualification have made great efforts. The media outside the emperor are already squatting. As the architectural design of Xiangyu''s first bid for a large building after its listing, the outside world is also very curious Besides, Yu Ziyun has been very good at marketing and threw a mystery to everyone before. The media and relevant external personnel are very curious about who will be the main designer this time. Jane Mo stopped the car and got off with Ding Dang at night. Today''s Jane Mo wears a white rag top and bottom coat, covered with a short sleeved waist ol with a large black cardigan. The whole person looks particularly fresh and capable. "Eh, isn''t that Jane Mo, the designer on the 18th floor of the emperor club?" The reporter with sharp eyes has been surprised and said softly. "When did she come back?" Someone asked in surprise at the news. "I don''t know... I saw her design win the UIA prize a few days ago!" While the reporters whispered one after another, they raised their cameras and began to shoot. Jian Mo looked calm and calm on this face, only slightly looked up at the group logo on the 79th floor emperor building, and gradually raised his overwhelming self-confidence. Looking down, Jane Mo took the lead in stepping into the emperor building, four and a half years away... This is still the place she wants to conquer. When Jian Mo and others arrived, there were several in the conference room Different from the last club design, this time because it is the overall architectural design, which involves qualification issues, only seven or eight can participate in Los Angeles. Plus several companies in other places, there are 11 in total. The meeting was presided over by Shang Junhao and the manager of emperor''s real estate department. Shang Junhao was surprised and surprised when he saw Jian mo. Because the meeting was started in advance, what we had to say was some key points and the time of comparison... But even so, the meeting didn''t end until near noon. "Thank you for coming today. Next, I hope to see your design..." the manager said with a smile in his mouth. "Emperor sincerely hopes to cooperate with you!" The meeting broke up. Jian Mo and others got up and went out of the meeting room with everyone Just as she was about to mute her mobile phone and turn it into a ringing tone, the phone called in... Jian Mo had a headache when she looked at the silent mobile phone screen flashing and "President Gu" displayed on it. There is no wake-up service this morning. It won''t be changed to lunch reminder, will it? Jane Mo answered the phone at the same time. She didn''t say hello because of environmental problems, but said softly, "hello?" "Lunch together?" Gu Beichen''s low voice came. Jane Mo rolled her eyes. "No time!" Gu Beichen didn''t seem to hear, "do you come up and go with me, or do I go down and go with you?" Is that bad? No, there''s a difference... The difference between being found and not being found! Although she is not afraid of gossip, the newspaper this morning has begun. She has no intention of competing for the architectural design of the real estate under the title of "Gu Beichen''s wife". "I said no time!" Jane Mo gritted her teeth and said word by word. "Well, I''ll go down to find you..." Gu Beichen answered. "..." Jane Mo was completely speechless. At the right time, she also heard Xiao Jing''s voice from her mobile phone: "Chen Shao, Miss Jane is in the meeting room on the 29th floor, and the elevator has been pressed for you!" Chapter 230 Poof Jane Mo was immediately choked by her saliva, and even slipped a black line on her forehead! "You did it on purpose?" Asked Jane Mo gnashing her teeth. Gu Beichen didn''t move. He just leaned in front of the elevator. He was a little lazy, "have lunch together, huh?" In her low voice, there was a magnetic charm. Jian Mo wanted to refuse, but it was also clear... Gu Beichen would "be aboveboard" and had to have lunch with her! "I''ll wait for you in the underground parking lot..." Gu Beichen said softly, and it was completely decided. "You are cruel!" Jane Mo said angrily and hung up her cell phone. "Sister Mo?" In the evening, I saw Jane Mo with a gloomy face and didn''t know who called. I looked at her suspiciously. Jane Mo took a breath, then took out the car key and gave it to Ding Dang. "I won''t go back with you. I have something to deal with..." she looked calm. "When I''m finished, I''ll just take a taxi back." "Let me take a taxi back to the evening, or it''s inconvenient for you..." Ding Dang said. Jane Mo shook her head, "drive away..." At this moment, I don''t know what Gu Beichen is going to do. She doesn''t want to come back to the emperor for the sake of turning back. Ding Dang didn''t insist either. Although he was confused with Xiang night, he left without asking more questions Jane Mo took another elevator that could also reach the underground parking lot. When she got out of the elevator, she saw Gu Beichen waiting there. "Gu, are you free?" Jane Mo gently raised her eyebrows. Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a faint radian, "no matter how busy you are, you''ll always eat rice." Jian Mo glared at Gu Beichen angrily and said with gnashing teeth, "if you really want to be photographed, my hidden rules... Please don''t get anything more than the draft for such a meeting in the future. Just give it to me directly!" "Do you want to?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo smiled and said falsely, "I''m sorry for myself if I don''t take some benefits anyway." "If you have an affair with me, I will sign this kind of project to Xiangyu!" Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and even said with some ruffian Qi. Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and didn''t take Gu Beichen''s words seriously, "Gu Zong, where''s your integrity?" Gu Beichen couldn''t help laughing at Jian Mo''s speechless appearance... Then motioned her to get on the bus. "Hello, Miss Jane!" Xiao Jing saw them come over, hurriedly opened the back door, and greeted Jane Mo with a smile on his face. There''s no way. Chen Shao is the one who wants to please. He has to be more dogmatic... Don''t look back. His year-end bonus can''t be guaranteed again. "Long time no see!" Jane Mo restrained her anger at Gu Beichen and greeted Xiao Jingrou. Xiao Jing immediately felt the arrival. Looking at Beichen, he was so fierce that he wanted to poke a hole in his eyes. Suddenly, he grinned secretly and wailed for a while... Can''t Miss Jane blame him for being kind to him? "Ha ha... OK, long time no see..." Xiao Jing swallowed involuntarily, "Miss Jane is more... More radiant than before..." Thanks to Jane Mo, Chen Shao should be happier? "Get in the car!" Gu Beichen said in a deep voice. Jane Mo immediately changed her face to Gu Beichen, glanced at him, and then got into the car. Gu Beichen''s brush shot a fierce look at Xiao Jing again Xiao Jing was forced for a while, but he was very happy... Seeing Chen Shao''s shriveled appearance, he was worth seeing more. Thinking like this, he grinned and got on the bus in Gu Beichen''s gloomy mood. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo while Xiao Jingqi was driving the bullet train. "Grandma heard you''re back... Ask if you''re free to go over and have a meal." Jane Mo didn''t immediately refuse... When she married Gu Beichen, grandma Gu was the only one who really regarded her as a granddaughter-in-law. For grandma Gu, her heart is still filled with gratitude. "Stop for two weeks!" Jane Mo said that she has just returned in the past two weeks. She will be busy, and there are many milk bags that need to be familiar with. Gu Beichen immediately slipped through the depths of his eyes and raised his thin lips with a touch of light. He thought that he didn''t have a special conflict with the time when he went out for inspection, and then answered, "OK!" Xiao Jingshi looked behind his eyes from the rearview mirror and despised Gu Beichen for a while When did Lao Taijun know that Jian Mo came back? Why didn''t he know? Three people in the car had three thoughts, but no one guessed each other''s thoughts Lunch was eaten in a small restaurant called ''another meal'' that Jane Mo didn''t know. The location is not very downtown. The first floor is the hall and the second floor is the box. They went up from a separate staircase outside... So no one noticed them either. "Chen Shao, the dishes will be served right away..." the landlady is a woman of about thirty, wearing an apron. She looks very simple, "wait a minute." "Good!" Gu Beichen nodded with a smile. After Jane Mo waited for the landlady to leave the box, she said curiously, "it''s not like where you always come..." "A platoon leader at the bottom of the South has made meritorious contributions to the task and entrusted me to take care of it." Gu Beichen said faintly, "however, she is also very ambitious. She takes a child alone and never wants me to help. She just borrows money from me to open this restaurant and repays it in installments every month!" Jane Mo knew that "meritorious service" meant sacrifice. Suddenly, she felt some sympathy for the landlady "Don''t you miss the taste of China?" Gu Beichen slightly picked up Jianmei and looked at Jian Mo, "I called her yesterday and asked her to prepare some special Los Angeles dishes. If you feel it suits your appetite, you''ll eat here next time." As soon as Jane Mo heard that there was another time, she remained silent... She neither promised nor refuted, pretending not to understand. She felt that she was not a paragraph number in front of Gu Beichen, so... She''d better know herself better. The food came up very quickly. They are really the specialties of Los Angeles... The most important thing is that the taste is very homely and makes people greedy when they eat it. "It''s not easy to be a woman..." Jian Mo said with emotion. "Hasn''t she thought about finding another man to take care of her?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, "what about you?" "Huh?" Jane Mo didn''t react. Gu Beichen''s thin lips slightly coagulated together, the temples moved slightly, and the ink pupil stared at Jian Mo more and more deeply and asked, "you also take your children alone. Have you ever thought of finding a man to take care of you?" Jian Mo was a little uncomfortable when Gu Beichen looked at her like this, "think about it..." Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually showed urgency. His thin lips were about to speak, so he heard Jian Mo say helplessly, "but there are too many choices around him, and it hasn''t been decided yet." "..." Gu Beichen''s rising hope was instantly extinguished by a basin of cold water. Gu Beichen wanted to ask why Su Junli had no choice and even gave birth to other people''s children since she had been with her... In this case, it shows that Su Junli is not suitable! However, he was afraid that Jian Mo would be sad about the "scum man". "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen said. "Huh?" Jane Mo took a spoon and prepared to fill herself with a bowl of soup. She should be free. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes always stared at Jian Mo, and his thin lips gently asked, "can you add an me to these choices?" Chapter 231 "Bang Dang" came, and the spoon Jian Mo had just picked up fell into the soup bowl again. With a crisp sound, the soup was splashed out. Jane Mo quickly put down the bowl and went to smoke a paper towel to wipe it. The corners of her mouth grinned, "Mr. Gu, it''s scary not to take you like this!" Gu Beichen also took out a paper towel to deal with the spilled soup and said, "Jane Mo, I''m not kidding!" "..." Jian Mo''s movement stopped. She fanned her eyes, looked at Gu Beichen with clear eyes, and asked, "Gu is always serious?" "Yes." Gu Beichen feels a little humble, but who makes love? Humble is humble. It''s true to get a woman into your arms first! Jian Mo saw that Gu Beichen didn''t seem to be joking. She frowned slightly, and then said seriously, "I guess Gu will be disappointed..." "Why?" Gu Beichen frowned. Jane Mo smiled, enchanting and charming, "Mr. Gu has never heard of... A good horse doesn''t eat back?" She ignored Gu Beichen''s gloomy handsome face. "Besides, there are too many choices around me... Su Junli, who doesn''t dislike me having children with other men, has no chance." "I don''t mind..." Gu Beichen said heavily. "..." Jane Mo said at the moment that she was not shocked. It was all a lie. She couldn''t help feeling very disobedient when she looked at Gu Beichen. Why haven''t you seen him for four and a half years? It is said that the emperor has gone up several floors. The setting of the domineering president is getting more and more wrong? Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and couldn''t help laughing perfunctorily. "It''s Mr. Gu''s business to want to line up, but whether I''m in the mood to play games with you is my mood... Well, don''t interfere with each other!" Seeing that Jian Mo didn''t believe himself at all, Gu Beichen died again... Was his previous image so bad? A meal, Jane Mo didn''t care at all. Coupled with the delicious food, she ate very comfortably. Gu Beichen was very depressed because of Jian Mo''s words But who is he? An emperor president who controls the survival of tens of thousands of people and families all over the world... Did he give up after chasing a woman in a few words? This is not in line with his character! For Gu Beichen''s mind, Jane Mo is not in the mood to speculate... With her last experience, she will clearly tell herself to take care of herself this time. It''s just that she''s really curious... Why hasn''t a person who can give up the wholly-owned acquisition of JK for Shen Chu come together now? With such doubts, Gu Beichen sent Jian Mo back to the company. "Thank you for your lunch..." Jian Mo said heartless, then smiled and greeted Xiao Jing, looked around like a thief, got off and left as quickly as possible! Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s back and couldn''t help but smile. Then he took back his sight and looked at Xiao Jing. He said coldly, "deduct the final award for an adult!" Poof Xiao Jing''s smile of greeting Jian Mo on his face hasn''t stopped. As soon as he heard it, a mouthful of blood rushed up, and he was about to spray Gu Beichen''s face! "Chen Shao, I''m innocent..." Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen with a hard face. Why did he feel that Chen Shao was unhappy and would talk about his year-end bonus in the future? Miss Jane won''t give you a chance. Blame me? It''s enough for the man to leave the dark scene like this! After starting the car, Xiao Jing looked at Beichen from the rearview mirror, turned his mouth secretly and drew the car into the traffic flow. At the same time, a Land Rover slowly parked in the parking space Chu Zixiao looked at the car leaving and frowned slightly, "isn''t that Beichen''s car?" With doubts, Chu Zixiao glanced at Lingyu international, and finally converged his sight and got off the car After dealing with a case related matter, Chu Zixiao stood in front of the elevator, thought about it, and finally pressed the up button of the elevator. With a ''ding'' sound, the elevator reached Xiangyu''s floor. Chu Zixiao stepped out. Because of the relationship between Tang Yu and Tang Haoyang, he knew that the whole architectural design department had moved to a new floor. "Hello!" Sun Ke stepped forward, "is Chu Bian something or wants to find a designer?" "I''m looking for Jane Mo!" Chu Zixiao spoke faintly. Sun Ke was slightly stunned and immediately said, "Mo Mo is in a meeting. I''m afraid it will take a while..." "I''ll wait for her!" Chu Zixiao said. Sun Ke nodded and took Chu Zixiao to the reception room. After making coffee for him, he said, "I''ll tell Mo Mo after the meeting." "Thank you!" Chu Zixiao answered. Sun Ke smiled and turned out of the reception room. When he got to his position, he saw mu Xiaoran coming, "sister Ke, is that the defense lawyer of the criminal case that has been in the limelight recently?" Sun Ke smiled, "yes." "Eh, he also came to us to find a designer?" Mu Xiaoran blinked curiously. Sun Ke was a little embarrassed. "Emperor, we can all cooperate. Can''t... Lawyer? Besides, his current law firm was designed by Mo Mo!" As soon as mu Xiaoran heard this, he immediately looked adored, "really?" Sun Ke nodded, "OK, don''t be curious... Go and draw your design drawing!" Xu is different in age. Sun Ke doesn''t like talking with interns about things unrelated to work. He always feels that communication can''t reach one point! Jian Mo''s architectural design for the emperor is having a meeting with Yu Ziyun, Tang Haoyang and Ding Dang and Xiang night who will help her follow up. This is the first major project after Xiangyu''s listing. Coupled with the first shot of Jian Mo''s return, Yu Ziyun attaches great importance to it. "I still don''t participate in your whole design," Yu Ziyun said quietly. After a while, his eyes fell on Jian mo. "Jian Mo, I trust you and don''t need your ability to tell you..." Jane Mo smiled and felt warm about Yu Ziyun''s appreciation. After so much, she is now staying in Xiangyu. She is not only a "deed of betrayal". It''s not easy to find a boss who allows you to let go! "I won''t let you down!" Jane Mo said confidently with a smile. Yu Ziyun nodded, "break up the meeting!" Then he got up and walked out. Tang Haoyang looked at Jian Mo and couldn''t help laughing and joking: "little Jane, don''t let me and president Yu down!" Jane Mo just smiled and didn''t answer... Suddenly, the dignified moment of the previous meeting dispersed and there was peace. Several people went out of the meeting room one after another. Before Jian Mo returned to the office, Sun Ke shouted to her, "Mo Mo, someone is looking for you in the reception room..." Jane Mo''s hand just wanted to push the door, "huh?" "Chu Zixiao!" Sun Ke picked his eyebrows and said. As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she immediately frowned and sighed softly with some help to her forehead... What are Chu Zixiao and Gu Beichen''s nephews going to do? Chapter 232 Jane Mo sighed quietly, put the meeting materials in the office first, and then went to the reception room. Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo at work and had a deeper infatuation in his eyes Not every feeling is the same as tea. The more it is diluted, the lighter it is. There is also one, like wine, which becomes more and more mellow with the precipitation of time. He, to Jane mo... That''s it! "Chu Bian, if I come on business today, I''m sorry..." Jian Mo sat down while saying, "I''m afraid I don''t have time recently." "It''s not business..." Chu Zixiao said astringently, "I know you came back for the emperor''s new real estate." Jane Mo smiled, polite and alienated, "that Chu debate is..." "Do you have time in the evening?" Chu Zixiao asked, "let''s have dinner together?" "I have to pick up my son after work," said Jian Mo casually. "He has just returned home. He is not used to it. It''s not appropriate for me to be away from home every day..." Chu Zixiao slipped a touch of self mockery at the bottom of his eyes. These two days, he also inquired about the child from the side with Li Xiaoyue. However, she just said it was a private matter of Mo Mo, which was inconvenient to say. "This child is..." Chu Zixiao forbeared and asked, "whose is it?" "Chu Bian, if you''re talking about private affairs, I''m sorry, I''m really busy..." Jian Mo sighed. "If there''s nothing else, can you make another appointment for private affairs?" For Jian Mo''s business, Chu Zixiao''s heart seems to be blocked by something... It''s a famous mouth, but every time he meets Jian Mo, he seems not to know how to speak. "Another appointment... Will you give me a chance?" Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo deeply and asked. Jane Mo continued to laugh very alienated, "I won''t refuse the occasional party among my classmates..." Hearing her say this, Chu Zixiao''s bitterness in the corners of his mouth became deeper. "Foam, I can''t put it down..." there was a touch of self mockery in his voice, "if I can, I want to take care of you and your children, can I?" "..." Jane Mo felt cold for a while. Is today advertising day? Why do Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao want to take care of her and her children one by one? They like being fathers so much? "I think I have enough ability to take care of myself and my children..." Jian Mo said calmly, "Chu debate, if there''s nothing else, I''ll send you out!" The clear departure order made Chu Zixiao unable to say anything more. Moreover, it was not urgent for a while. Jian Mo sent Chu Zixiao to the elevator and pressed the down button When the elevator arrived, Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes and said, "Mo Mo, if you will give Beichen a chance, you can''t exclude me... We have a past in the end!" Jane Mo pulled down the corners of her mouth and didn''t answer... Because if someone once had to give a chance, wouldn''t her life be more chaotic? However, what Jane Mo didn''t think of at the moment was that Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao didn''t count. In a few days, an unexpected person joined, which made her emotional world really messy in the wind. From back to now, for several days in a row, while studying the emperor''s new real estate, Jian Mo has to deal with Gu Beichen''s harassment from time to time. Now there is no morningcall, and there is no need to refuse to eat with her from time to time... However, every morning, Jian Mo will receive a bunch of flowers from Gu Beichen anonymously. "Tut Tut, from the foam back to today, there is a bunch every day, all of which are Campanula grass!" Mo Xiaoya''s arms are around her chest, and a queen''s fan''er looks at the helpless Jian Mo, "the flower language of Campanula is'' gentle love ''... Mo Mo, who is it? So emotional?" Jian Mo sighed quietly, and didn''t show any on her face. She just said, "there''s no signature, and I''m waiting for the answer..." At the moment, she didn''t know what it was like... Gu Beichen was surprised that she was like this. Besides, if the flower language was really "gentle love", wouldn''t it be ridiculous? Do people find that they let go of true love after losing it? Such an eight o''clock dog blood drama is not suitable for her, and she is not the heroine in other people''s story After talking to Mo Xiaoya about what needs the cooperation of the design department, Jian Mo sent a text message to Gu Beichen: Mr. Gu, thank you very much for the flowers, but... In order not to cause the burden of my assistant, can I not send them tomorrow? Jian Mo''s words are very tactful, but Gu Beichen still understands Gu Beichen calmly replied to the text message in the meeting: if you like throwing, I''ll send a car tomorrow and let you throw enough... How about? Looking at some childish text messages, Gu Beichen couldn''t help but raise his thin lips The executive who was reporting was already frightened and didn''t know whether to continue. He just hesitated. At the same time, he looked at Gu Beichen''s smile suspiciously, and suddenly felt a chill on the soles of his feet. However, he secretly prayed that Gu Beichen didn''t pay attention to his report because he looked at his mobile phone But obviously, his prayer is useless! "It has dropped by one point in the same period. What does it mean?" Gu Beichen''s astringent smile, his cold, carved face was already indifferent, a pair of eagle eyes lifted slightly, and immediately shot two sharp lights at the senior executive, "it shows that the market research is not accurate enough... If you feel too stressed in this position, I think... Many people are waiting to come up!" The senior executive was secretly biting his tongue, and his face was forced to collapse. The atmosphere in the imperial executive meeting room is stiff and dignified, but Jian Mo looks depressed in his office Is Gu Beichen deliberately? Thinking angrily, Jian Mo is too lazy to reply to Gu Beichen''s text message After a busy day, Jane Mo packed the design things into her bag after work and planned to take them home to continue her work... At this moment, she had to hurry to pick up the milk bag from school. Because she was late for two days in a row, she had been criticized by the kindergarten teacher''s "severe" thought. When Jane Mo arrived at the kindergarten, the school door opened. She secretly rejoiced that she was not late today Standing at the door, Jane Mo looked at the teacher and brought the child out again and again. She hung her neck and looked at whether there was a milk bag... Suddenly, she always felt that her eyes seemed to look at her with examination. Secretly frowned, Jane Mo looked at the place where she looked with instinct... Just right in the sight of a woman. Looking back for a long time, Jane Mo felt that this woman looked familiar, but she just couldn''t remember where she had met? He Yining came over, "I heard you''re back. It''s true..." Jane Mo smiled politely, and then asked with some embarrassment, "excuse me, are you..." Why do you rather estimate that Jane Mo doesn''t remember her? After all, her whole body had been hollowed out that night. Where is the mood to care about a doctor who examined her? "My name is he Yining! Surgeon of Shuya Hospital..." he Yining explained to himself, thought about it, and said, "you''re pregnant... It''s my first discovery!" Jane Mo suddenly widened her eyes Chapter 233 Why would you rather see Jian Mo stunned and couldn''t help laughing, "look at you here, it seems... The child should have been born?" Although it was a doubt, it was obvious that she was sure. Jane Mo nodded convulsively at the corner of her mouth. She didn''t know why she would rather know whose child the milk bag was But on second thought, the person who accompanied him in the hospital that night was su Junli. Won''t he be considered his child? "You... Also came to pick up the children?" Asked Jane mo. He Yining nodded. "It should be a few months younger than your child... It''s a girl, and you?" "Boy!" Jian Mo answered with a smile and felt that he should not bother others... There is no airtight wall in the world. Sooner or later, Gu Beichen and naibao will know each other''s existence. At the right time, a teacher came out with a nervous face. After looking around, he hurried to why Yining, "Mom, uncomfortable..." He Yining''s face suddenly became frightened and hurried in with the teacher Jane Mo wants to go in and have a look, but she is afraid of missing the milk bag. Finally, she can only worry about frowning and watching why Yining''s back gradually disappear in her eyes. "Mommy..." the young voice came with a touch of pride. Jian Mo converged her eyes and saw Jian Jie standing in front of the teacher. It was rare that she didn''t dislike her. She looked at her late and hurried over After saying hello to the teacher, Jane Mo wanted to take Jane Jie''s little hand... She felt very happy when she thought of the mother and son talking and laughing at home in the sunset. Unfortunately, this is what she imagined If it''s not for domestic kindergartens, there must be adults to pick up the children, and she doesn''t even need to pick up the milk bag. Therefore, that kind of parent-child behavior will not happen to him. "Who was that who just talked to you?" Asked Jane with a curious little pupil. "The first doctor to find you in this world..." Jane Mo replied. Jane Jie suddenly raised her little mouth, "what a lovely aunt!" "..." Jian Mo was dissatisfied. "I was the first to give birth to you... Why haven''t I seen you praise me?" Jian Jie looked contemptuously at Jian Mo, "you should do that, okay!" Jane Mo is kind to her son. However, she has to face her son''s father these days. She is even more hearty As soon as they got home, Su Junli called. "Jun Li?" Jane Mo motioned Jane Jie to open the door. "I''ll pass by the kindergarten right away. Do you need me to pick up Xiao Jie?" Su Junli asked. "Just got home," Jane Morse entered the room. "Come to dinner?" Su Junli smiled and said softly, "OK! I''ll be there right away... I brought vegetables in the car." Jane Mo answered and didn''t feel anything wrong After more than four years together, they are letting nature take its course. However, she may be focused on her studies, or... If her heart is hurt, it is difficult to reheat. In short, she is now separated from Su Jun like a relative... Such feelings are very strong, but there is no love! ¡­¡­ Night, showing the madness under erosion. Dynamic heavy metal music is like releasing the most fundamental inferiority of human nature, with the most direct and sharp arrogance everywhere. On the dance floor, Shen Chu''s enchanting dancing posture became hot under her exquisite figure. Many men gathered around her, and everyone looked at her with greedy eyes under infatuation! Mo Shaochen frowned, but his face was so indifferent... A pair of calm eyes gradually gushed out cold ridicule. But I don''t know whether to laugh at myself or at the people on the dance floor. The music gradually decreased. Shen Chu ignored everyone''s greed for her and went down the dance floor. Then he sat down on the side of Mo Shaochen, took the wine and began to drink "You come here to see me every day. Aren''t you tired?" Shen Chu sneered at Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen sneered coldly, "Shen Chu, I just want to see you. How can you toss yourself to death and see what you can degenerate into?" "Take your time..." Shen Chu said with disapproval. Mo Shaochen was in a hurry. "Are you unable to live without Gu Beichen?" He sneered, "if so, you shouldn''t have used him... From the beginning, you shouldn''t have." "Don''t tell me this..." Shen Chu sneered. "Gu Beichen''s principle is to see people. Mo Shaochen, I''ll ask you... If the same thing happened to Jian Mo, do you think Gu Beichen would do so well?" Mo Shaochen looked at Shen Chu with disappointment and made a half ring... Then slowly said, "Jane Mo won''t do this!" More than four years is enough for him to know a lot of people and things For example, Beichen''s hidden wife is Jian mo... Why can he let Beichen fall in with Jian Mo. Shen Chu chuckled coldly, then raised his glass and poured all the wine into his mouth. He glanced coldly at Mo Shaochen and got up, "I''m a despicable man. Please don''t bother me!" Then she walked away Out of the noisy bar, Shen Chu stood outside, the night wind hit slightly, and suddenly... She felt a little ridiculous. Without driving, Shen Chu stumbled on the streets of Los Angeles at night. The emperor and JK completely extinguished her dream Yes, she really only used Gu Beichen before, but she always had all her feelings for him. If there is no Jane Mo, can they not end like this? Shen Chu made a cold tick at the corner of his mouth and then stopped... He saw the evening news on the big screen of the mall. "Xiangyu was well known four years ago for the design of the 18th floor of an emperor''s club in Jianmo. When many people were attracted by Jianmo''s design, she went abroad to study." The host looked relaxed and said with a smile, "this time, Jian Mo returned with honor and strength. With Xiangyu''s qualification as the support, he fought the imperial building again... Many people are very concerned about it. This time... Can Jian Mo surprise us..." Shen Chu looked at the picture showing the design of Jianmo emperor Club four years ago, and his face gradually showed ferocity. It''s also waiting. Why did her result end badly, but she... Got Gu Beichen''s thoughts? Shen Chu narrowed his eyes slightly, got drunk and blurred, then took back his sight and continued to walk forward At night, the shadow is particularly lonely and lonely, and is also full of heavy hostility. The light outlines the most harmonious side of people "Jun and I leave the concert hall. You do your homework first, and then arrange your own time." Jane Mo said as she went to get her bag. "OK..." Jian Jie answered, sent Jian Mo and Su Jun away to the door, waved with Su Jun, and then closed the door. Jane Jie went to get his schoolbag and prepared to do his homework... I don''t know if he inherited Jane foam. He also has a special liking for the dining table. "Ding Dong..." Just when Jian Jie finished his homework and was ready to pack his schoolbag... The doorbell rang. Gu Beichen stood waiting at the door with a book in his hand. Looking at the door lock pressing the password, he was very depressed that Jian Mo would change the date password of the anniversary of their meeting Chapter 234 Jian Jie frowned slightly, rubbed off his chair and went to the door The home is a password lock, so we rule out the possibility that mommy doesn''t have a key. They just came back a few days ago, and few people can come home. Uncle is away with mommy now, and the second mother won''t come now... Therefore, acquaintances are also excluded. At this time, it can''t be the staff of the property and so on Jian Jie calmly ruled out everything. Then, when the doorbell rang again, he turned and continued to pack things... As if he didn''t know, he turned his father out again. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. When he came in, he clearly saw that the light was on Thinking, Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone and wanted to call Jane mo. "It''s been deserted for more than four years because of me..." Jane Mo looked at the Adrian concert hall with her own interior design and felt a little guilty. Su Jun left a gentle smile, and his voice was softer. "If you lose your soul, naturally you have to find it to give it life..." A pun made Jian Mo feel more guilty, "Jun Li, I''m sorry..." "Never say sorry to me." Su Jun said faintly, "such company is good... Maybe one day I can turn around, maybe one day you can turn around for me... Who can say the things in this world?" Su Jun''s smile from the corner of his mouth became more and more gentle and warm, "so, Mo Mo... Never feel guilty and burdened because of my feelings for you. Let it go, there will always be a time to meet each other''s rainbow." Jian Mo''s heart was instantly injected with warm current. Such feelings were transparent and clear, which made her unable to bear to treat Chu Zixiao like... And there was no way to treat Gu Beichen like that. Perhaps, as Su Junli said... Even if there is no love between them, they are also people who can be together. The sweet piano music came and replaced the one often used in Los Angeles. It was a short piece created by Su Junli specifically for her ringtone Jane Mo took out her mobile phone and frowned when she saw that the caller ID was "President Gu". After thinking about it, Jian Mo pressed down the voice of her mobile phone and didn''t answer it directly... Then she was afraid that Gu Beichen would call again and pressed it directly into silence. There must be nothing important to call at this time! Seeing Jian Mo''s angry appearance, Su Jun left the corner of his mouth with a warm smile and asked softly, "Gu Beichen?" "Well..." Jian Mo didn''t hide Su Junli. Su Jun slipped a touch of astringency from the bottom of his eyes, but soon disappeared. "I heard a lot of things when I came back..." he paused slightly and asked, "Mo Mo, if that person was Gu Beichen, how would you face it?" Jian Mo looked at Su Junli, and there was no trace of impurity in the eyes of the bright mirror, "in fact, I don''t know." She sighed and didn''t avoid the question. "His marriage and I are a contractual marriage. No matter whether we put our feelings in it or not, we can''t change our original intention." Jian Mo astringed her eyes and sat down on the piano stool. She gently raised her finger and pressed Bai Jian. "Junli, the biggest worry about going back to Los Angeles is the milk bag... I have no right to prevent them from recognizing each other, although I don''t want to." "I understand..." Su Junli leaned gently on the piano, copied his pocket with both hands, slightly lowered his eyes, and sighed at the bottom of his eyes. "I just want to... On the premise that you don''t care, the person who can always consider first is me. But such an idea is too selfish..." Jane Mo withdrew her hand, pursed her lips and looked at Su Jun leaving. Su Jun left the corner of his mouth with a smile, his eyes coagulated with Jian Mo and said, "it''s just that I will never be a burden on your heart... So, Mo Mo, follow your heart is my happiness!" Even if your last choice is Gu Beichen, or any other man... As long as you don''t make do with it, that''s my happiness. Gu Beichen called several times without anyone answering. Suddenly, his cold face was covered with haze Look at the password lock. He can''t wait to call someone to crack the password directly! Of course, it''s just thinking Gu Beichen frowned and sent a text message to Jian Mo: I have an out of print book of alvaralto in my hand. Since someone doesn''t want it... It seems that I shouldn''t give it to someone. After sending the message, Gu Beichen waited for a while and saw that no one opened the door... He couldn''t help but frown slightly and whispered, "are you really not at home?" Thinking like this, Gu Beichen looked down at the book in his hand, and finally got up and left With this book in hand, he can guarantee that... Jane Mo will come to him! ¡­¡­ After recording the places in the concert hall that need to be repaired and designed, Su Junli sent her back to Runze garden. When Jianmo got home, Jianjie had just washed and was ready to go to bed "Mommy, about an hour after you left, someone knocked at the door!" Jian Jie looked at Jian Mo calmly and said, "I really want to know... Who else knows here except Uncle Li and Er Ma?" Jane Mo fanned her eyes and said innocently, "how do I know? You want to know so much. You just couldn''t open the door yourself?" Then she wanted to change her clothes. Jian Jie stared discontentedly, "aren''t you afraid that I''ll be kidnapped by bad guys?" "I''m more worried..." Jian Mo looks back at Jian Jie, "... The bad guys are killed by you!" At the same time, she had entered the bedroom. "..." Jian Jie was angry. "I''m enough with a mother like you! Hum!" He snorted angrily and went to his bedroom. It''s impossible to get some shadow of daddy from Mommy''s mouth... As long as his direction is this, Mommy seems to become smart all of a sudden. Jane Mo ignored Jane Jie''s depression and went to take a bath and planned to study the design of the emperor''s new real estate After taking something out, Jane Mo took out her mobile phone A look, there are several missed, all Gu Beichen''s. Jane Mo skimmed her mouth and didn''t take it seriously, and then opened the text message. When she saw Alvar Aalto, Jane Mo''s eyes lit up like a sun lamp Jane Mo was going to hate her stupidity... What was she doing at that time? She thought Gu Beichen was bored and called her? Ah ah Her master alvaralto! Without saying anything, Jian Mo hurriedly dialed Gu Beichen back However, there was a sound for several times, and no one answered... Jane Mo seemed to pace back and forth in a hurry. Just as the phone was waiting for the bell to stop, Gu Beichen picked it up, and then a word came out in his deep throat, "huh?" Xiao Jing looked at Beichen from the rearview mirror and secretly despised I just said that I would ask Miss Jane to call several times if I didn''t answer the phone. Hum, not once! Chapter 235 Jian Mo deliberately ignored the unhappiness in Gu Beichen''s tone, grinned, and looked flattered and flustered: "President Gu, just now the phone vibrated and I didn''t hear it in my bag... So..." "Jane Mo, don''t you think such a childish reason has lowered my IQ?" Gu Beichen hissed coldly. Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. Did Gu Beichen change this way to say she was "stupid"? Can he and his son stop talking about her IQ? Jane Mo put aside the corners of her mouth, accepted the flattery on her face, and then asked, "I want the book from Alvar Aalto in your hand... I''m sorry I missed the phone just now!" Gu Beichen heard that even if she admitted her mistake, she had to leave a way back for herself. She couldn''t help but raise her thin lips, "I''m in blues. Come and find me!" "So late?" Jane Mo said softly, "no... I''ll pick it up sometime tomorrow!" "Well, I''ll fly at seven tomorrow morning. Go to the airport and pick it up..." Gu Beichen lay back in his seat and looked at the neon sliding outside the car. Jane Mo secretly feigned, and then pulled the corners of her mouth, "then... I''ll wait for you to come back!" Anyway, this book is already in Gu Beichen''s hand, and she doesn''t worry about flying "During the inspection in the first half of the year, it will take me at least half a month to come back." Gu Beichen said calmly, "during this period, I may attend the global architectural design summit. Can I bring this book back... I don''t guarantee it." Jane Mo immediately grinned and wanted to roar back... Gu Beichen, are you on purpose? Don''t you think it''s too heavy for you to take the book with you on a business trip? Obviously, Gu Beichen knew it was intentional, but Jian Mo couldn''t allow it. Maybe the book really flew... I don''t know. Now I know there is this book. If I let it fly, she will vomit blood and die! Take a deep breath... Pull the corners of your mouth and laugh! Jian Mo said slowly and falsely, "OK, I''ll find you in blues in half an hour... Please wait a minute!" Gu Beichen listened to Jian Mo''s angry voice, and his thin lips gradually raised a smile from his heart... That smile reached the bottom of his eyes in an instant. He didn''t speak, just hung up and said, "go to Blues!" Xiao Jing looked at Beichen from the rearview mirror, and then pulled a fake smile: "Chen Shao, don''t you find that the blues is coming soon?" According to Chen Shao''s black and domineering nature, he pinched Miss Jane''s preference... Since he said that people are in blues, he must cheat Miss Jane. As a qualified special assistant, you must want to be in front of your master Gu Beichen gave Xiao Jing a cold look. When the car stopped, he said coldly, "drive away!" To make complaints about Beichen''s difference from Jane''s appearance, Xiao Jing had no way to tuck up his voice. "Chen Xiao, there is no car on the blues." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and wanted to open the door and get off. Xiao Jing was helpless. "Then I''ll pick you up later?" "No need..." Gu Beichen said calmly. At the same time, his slender legs had stepped out. "Doesn''t Jane Mo have a car?" Xiao Jing slightly opened his mouth and looked surprised at Gu Beichen''s proud back with a steady and brisk step. He closed his mouth for a long time "Tut Tut," Xiao Jing shook his head contemptuously, "Chen Shaozhen is a romantic means to play better than animals!" No car... Even if Miss Jane doesn''t want to send it, Chen Shao has to find a way to let her send it! Well, where? Whether it''s a halfway house or going back to Runze garden together... Tut Tut, according to the characteristics of chenshao''s abstinence for more than four years, can''t you sing a legend of hungry wolves? Xiao Jing looked evil at Gu Beichen''s figure behind the blues door, then started the car and left After Jane Mo changed her clothes, she went to Jane Jie''s room and saw that the little guy was asleep. After a kiss on his forehead, she gently closed the door. Took the note and wrote a message. Jane Mo was afraid that she would worry when Jane Jie woke up later. Put the note on the table and Jane went out Driving all the way to the blues, Jane Mo looked at the not very bright, with a deep sign, got out of the car and went in. When Jane Mo opened the door, the waiter came over with a smile and said, "Miss Jane, Chen Shao is in the wine cellar. Let you come and go straight to him!" "Thank you!" Jane Mo nodded with a smile, then walked to the wine cellar that had only been here once Gu Beichen is in the wine cellar. You think you don''t remember some memories. However, when standing in the position where Jian Mo came here for the first time... The thoughts in his heart and body are overwhelming. Conveniently took out a bottle of top Cabernet Sauvignon, Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep, and his thin lips were scratched with a thin smile. The sound of footsteps came from the stairs. Gu Beichen looked sideways and saw that the thin high-heeled shoes drove the slender legs down step by step, "it''s coming very fast!" He was deliberately teasing. Jane Mo stood at the top of the wine cabinet. Because of the light, her position couldn''t see Gu Beichen''s face clearly. "There''s no way. Some people have to see me tonight. I can only manage to make it difficult." Listening to Jian Mo''s arrogant words, Gu Beichen''s smile spread He didn''t mind her carefully thinking about hiding, "have a drink with me?" "Gu, it''s late..." Jian Mo sighed lightly. "It doesn''t matter if you''re single. I''m a man with a son. It''s not good to go back too late!" "Don''t cry in front of your son, Jane, every day?" He whispered and walked over. "Are you afraid of what I do, or..." he suddenly leaned forward, and his voice became deep and far-reaching, "... You urgently want me to accept your son?" Because Gu Beichen''s breath suddenly hit, Jane Mo almost wanted to run away, but she held back! "Mr. Gu, you really think too much..." Jian Mo slightly raised her eyebrows. "In addition, although I know that Mr. Gu Houhei has been learning well... It''s just that I haven''t seen him for a few years, so I''m better." Gu Beichen''s smile at the corners of his mouth became evil and evil, and bullied him for a few minutes. He wanted to see... Does she really care or calm? "Your mouth... I haven''t seen you for years, but it''s also beneficial!" Gu Beichen at the moment, Junyan is almost going to stick it with Jian mo. Such a charming man is almost close to you. While speaking in such a low and slow voice, he sprinkles hot air on your face... A woman''s heart beats faster. Jane Mo smiled calmly, "thank you for your praise..." she calmly stepped back a little, looked at Gu Beichen with clear eyes, "where''s Alvar Aalto''s book?" "So you want to take it?" Gu Beichen smiled. The deep smile made people wonder what he was thinking. Jane Mo frowned slightly. "What do you want?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips became more and more evil. Just before Jian Mo reacted... He suddenly fished out his long arm, took her slender waist and rotated, which had already pressed her on the wine cabinet! With the trend, Junyan deceives me Chapter 236 Looking at Gu Beichen''s action, Jian Mo''s pupils widened in an instant, and her body retreated subconsciously... However, there was a wine cabinet behind her, and she had nowhere to retreat. The hand has been raised to Gu Beichen''s chest because of tension. Jian Mo swallowed involuntarily, and her breathing became urgent Gu Beichen''s mouth was always full of evil smile. He slipped through the depths of the ink pupil and looked at Jian Mo dangerously and continued to bully close Just when Jian Mo wanted to speak, his handsome face suddenly from the front side of Jian Mo''s face, and then the voice sounded magnetic and enchanting in her ear, "think I want to kiss you?" The voice of light EH is bewitched, just like a cello, straight into the depths of people''s soul... And with the heat of speaking, it is vaguely spread on the skin beside Jian Mo''s ears, crisp and numb. Just... The tone and words that didn''t deserve beating made Jane Mo''s body suddenly stiff! She was fooled again... The feeling that Jane Mo was crying blind! "Gu, Bei, Chen!" Jane Mo gnashed her teeth and squeezed out between her teeth word by word, "you''ve had enough..." Gu Beichen smiled, but Jian Mo tried to push him away because she was angry and her hands tried to push him away... Unfortunately, the difference in strength is too great to push him away! Jian Mo was in a hurry and was tightly wrapped by Gu Beichen''s breath Not to mention the special relationship between the two people before, even if there is nothing... It is impossible for such a rich, handsome and arrogant president not to beat her heart in front of her. "Gu Zong, what do you want?" Jane Mo asked, gritting her teeth and staring. Gu Beichen''s breathing was heavy. He seemed to endure something. After a while, he said, "Mo''er, let''s start over?" "Ah?" Jane Mo''s brain was pretty and funny, and her subconscious suspicions made a sound. Gu Beichen''s sideburns moved slightly, opened his thin lips and opened his mouth: "Mo''er, let''s start over, ok... Just start over when nothing has happened before?" "..." Jane Mo''s body became stiff in an instant, and even for a moment, her thoughts were empty. Gently, numbly fanned her eyelashes, and Jane Mo swallowed hard before she found her thoughts. "Mr. Gu, although there was some ''improper'' relationship between us before, but... Doesn''t mean I want to keep it all the time?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and then got up. Mo Tong looked at Jian Mo deeply, "what is an ''improper'' relationship?" He looked cold. "We have a legal marriage certificate. Why is it called ''illegitimate''?" Jane Mo immediately felt that her description was inappropriate, "well, even if I''m wrong. But... Before we became husband and wife, we took each other''s income, but now... You don''t have what I want?" "Jian Mo, our relationship doesn''t have to start on what we need..." Gu Beichen said with a slight frown. "Can''t we be simpler?" Jane Mo gently fanned her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen''s serious appearance, gradually frowning again What is Gu Beichen doing now? The play of the prodigal son turning back? Hehe Jane Mo suddenly felt a little want to laugh: "Mr Gu, although I don''t know why you treat me like this now... However, I think more than four years can precipitate a lot. Maybe, just because I turned around too quickly at the beginning, you have a knot in your heart... But I can''t disturb my life because of your knot, can I?" Gu Beichen listened to Jian Mo''s words and his eyebrows became tighter and tighter. "Jian Mo, can''t I be moved?" Jane Mo smiled. This time she was angry A man with "the only woman to love in this life" in his heart told her that he was attracted to her... Why did she think it was the most ridiculous thing in the world? Jane Mo shrugged, "but if two people are not together to get what they need... Do they have to be moved?" She smiled brightly, "Mr. Gu, even if you are interested in me... I have to be interested in you, don''t I?" A rhetorical question made Gu Beichen sigh helplessly... From beginning to end, Jian Mo was only for money. Later, the money was no longer needed, so... She had to please him from beginning to end and had no feelings at all. "I''ll make you moved..." Gu Beichen said in a low voice, with firmness in his eyes. "Jane Mo, many things need..." he said, suddenly picked up Jane Mo''s hand and put it in the position of his heart, and then slowly said the second half, "... Feel it with your heart!" Then, while Jian Mo was stunned, he took out another bottle of wine, and then grabbed two bottles of red wine with one hand. With the other hand holding Jian Mo''s hand, he slipped down from his heart without loosening it, and directly pulled her out Jane Mo didn''t break free. At the moment, breaking free seemed a little hypocritical. She didn''t understand why Gu Beichen wanted to do this. Everything before had settled in London for more than four years... But she didn''t know whether it would ferment again. Under the soft light, two red wine glasses and two bottles of red wine One is Gu Beichen''s favorite, and the other is Jian Mo''s favorite Why did Gu Beichen know that she has a special preference for Cabernet Sauvignon? Jane Mo didn''t think deeply... For a person with high IQ, she really can''t guess. The most important thing is that Jane Mo is thinking about Alvar Aalto''s book. "What about... Books?" Asked Jane, looking for the right opportunity. Gu Beichen answered casually, "in the car!" "Oh..." Jane Mo answered angrily, and then said, "drink the wine, too. Let''s go? Don''t you have to catch an early flight tomorrow morning?" Look, how considerate and caring she is! Jian Mo glanced cunningly at Gu Beichen and waited for him to say "OK"! Unfortunately, who is Gu Beichen? "It''s all right. I''m used to it on weekdays..." Gu Beichen said quietly. "I sleep more occasionally because someone was too tempting." Jane Mo thought about the book in her heart and didn''t listen carefully to the meaning of Gu Beichen''s words. She just drooped her shoulders and gritted her teeth and said, "but I don''t trust naibao at home alone... Moreover, Alvar Aalto''s book has tickled my heart." Jian Mo''s style is a bold and creative architecture under the humanization, and Alvar Aalto also promotes such ideas... It can be said that he is Jian Mo''s idol. Now the idol book is "close at hand", but I can only think... It can be imagined how hard she is. Looking at her stuffy appearance, Gu Beichen didn''t want to make her uncomfortable too much. Then he got up and took out a book from a pile of books on one side, "here!" Jian Mo saw that she was right in front of him and immediately stared at Gu Beichen... Is it fun to play with her? It''s a bad taste! She was angry, but Jian Mo went to pick up the book with a smile... She wouldn''t be so stupid as to let Gu Beichen have a chance to take the book back. However, Gu Beichen''s strength in holding the book is a little big. Looking at the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes, he can''t wait. The corners of his mouth hook a cunning and cold smile... Even there is a deep danger in the depths of the ink pupil. Jane Mo suddenly pulled back because she was eager and didn''t think much Then, Gu Beichen''s body followed the strength of the book. Due to inertia, people rushed over along Jian mo A scream of "ah" came out of Jian Mo''s mouth. Because Gu Beichen fell, he pushed her down on the sofa, thin lips... And even on her delicate lips Chapter 237 What is dog blood? Jane Mo felt that there was nothing more bloody than this moment... Gu Beichen, she did it on purpose! Her face turned red at once, and Jane Mo felt very hot. Fortunately, the light is not very bright, and Gu Beichen is pressed by his tall body, so... Under the dark side, he shouldn''t see his blush? Jane Mo was thinking about it quickly, and then subconsciously she was going to push Gu Beichen But I can''t push it! The sweet smell, the familiar touch, and even the breath are haunted by dreams... She thought she had precipitated everything, but at this moment, Jane Mo knew how wrong she was. Such familiar feelings instantly burst her heart... The overwhelming breath disturbed her heart beating wildly. Gu''s body feels as hot as a fire. Jane Mo instinctively resisted this feeling. She subconsciously wants to dodge and resist Suddenly Jane Mo stopped pushing and shoving, but when she felt what was against her, her face turned red like cooked prawns. "I... i... you..." Jane Mo pursed her lips and didn''t know what to say, because Gu Beichen''s lips hadn''t left her lips, and her voice couldn''t be clear. "Gu... Um..." Jian Mo was ashamed and annoyed and wanted to make Gu Beichen get up, but at the moment Zhang opened his mouth... Even after more than four years, when the familiar strength and breath slipped through her mouth, she was still palpitating. Kisses are gentle and careful. Jian Mo wanted to push away, but the hand against Gu Beichen''s chest gradually lost its strength... Even all its strength was shackled by Gu Beichen and could not resist. Everything is heating up... Jane Mo''s brain is frozen and has no way to respond. Gu Beichen''s action was wanton and gentle... It seemed that she was not in a hurry. Jian Mo''s subconscious resistance was so gentle to... Finally, she awakened the subconscious in her body. Jane Mo slowly closed her eyes... Such a gentle kiss made her sink at this moment, as if it recalled all her silent feelings The gentle breath leaves ambiguity in the air. I don''t know how long it took until Jian Mo''s breath began to be heavy, Gu Beichen slowly let go of her... However, he didn''t get up, but buried Jun''s face in her neck. Two people''s breathing is very thick and heavy, and each other''s mouth is completely each other''s taste and breath Gu Beichen tried hard to bear the bath hope on his body. Because of this, his breathing became heavier and heavier. Mo''er has a bad idea of him. He can''t make her resist more because of his bath expectation... The kiss just now is already his intentional Welfare Gu Beichen closed his eyes, and his thin lips had become a line. Jian Mo''s face turned red and wanted to push Gu Beichen away. The heat had already scalded her skin... This feeling made her embarrassed and scared. "Don''t move..." Gu Beichen''s voice was hoarse, "just for a while!" Jian Mo felt Gu Beichen''s forbearance and wanted to push away his strength and gradually took it back The only thing hanging in the space is each other''s breathing sound. However, because of this breathing sound, each other''s hearts are suddenly quiet at this moment. Jane Mo''s face is still red. She can feel Gu Beichen holding back In this way, I don''t know how long it took until Jian Mo''s body was almost numb by Gu Beichen... Gu Beichen''s strength gradually subsided. However, Gu Beichen suddenly doesn''t remember Just hold her and press her... Even if you don''t do anything, it''s also a kind of happiness. However, Gu Beichen felt the rigidity of Jian Mo''s body and finally got up. Jian Mo''s face is not so red after this calming time. She pursed her lower lip and hurriedly said to Gu Beichen in some panic: "we are adult men and women... Although it doesn''t matter, Gu always won''t let such an ''accident'' happen next time!" She deliberately accentuated the word "accident", obviously knowing that Gu Beichen just didn''t let go, causing her to drag the book on purpose. Jane Mo turned to look for the book that fell on the ground and patted it gently on her face... But she didn''t find the emotion and subconscious resistance in her eyes. "I don''t promise!" Gu Beichen was thick skinned and said that he didn''t care about his physical reaction just now. Jane Mo stared at Beichen with hatred. She got the book. She still had to leave the dangerous man! When she got up, Jane Mo smiled at the corners of her mouth, "thank you, Mr. Gu... Then I''ll go first." "Together!" Gu Beichen also got up. Jane Mo rolled her eyes secretly and wanted to leave from the other side without saying anything Gu Beichen calmly followed Jian Mo out of the blues, and then followed her to her car. Then when Jian Mo pressed the central lock, he turned and wanted to go to the co pilot. Jane Mo opened the driver''s seat and stopped. "Wait..." she stared at Gu Beichen, "what are you doing?" "Xiao Jing drove the car to make an appointment with his little girlfriend. I''ll go with you!" Gu Beichen said calmly, his face not red and out of breath. The man had got into the car, and then slammed the door in front of Jian mo. Jane Mo flapped her eyelashes, and suddenly found out how she wanted to sell herself because of a book? Gritting her teeth, Jane Mo pulled a fake smile when she got into the car and looked at Gu Beichen, "President Gu, you''re driving everywhere. You can''t... There''s no blues?" Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was completely indifferent. His eagle eyes were slightly frozen and looked at Jian Mo, "they all drove away before, and the driver hasn''t supplied them yet... So, no!" What he said is the truth, but it has become a shameful lie in Jane Mo''s eyes! Jian Mo subconsciously resisted Gu Beichen because she had just felt wandering in her heart. "You can call your driver to pick you up... I don''t seem to be in the same direction as you!" "It doesn''t matter, I''m not in a hurry..." Gu Beichen said calmly. "..." Jane Mo was choked and almost coughed out. She''s in a hurry now, okay? Why did this man mess around? "Don''t you mean to go back with your son? Why don''t you go quickly?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows, and his thin lips raised an arc like nothing. Make complaints about Jane''s "ha", she looks at Gu Beichen''s calm and unhurried cheek, and really can not Tucao. "Where are you going?" Asked Jane Mo gnashing her teeth. "Halfway up the mountain..." Gu Beichen said faintly, "of course, if you are willing to take me back to Runze garden, I don''t mind... Even you can provide free arms as pillows and warm breasts!" "Gu Beichen, you''ve had enough!" Jian Mo finally glared at him, and then angrily started the car and drove to the mid mountain villa. Looking at Jian Mo''s angry and charming appearance, Gu Beichen smiled on his thin lips Without the flattery under the hypocrisy in marriage, now Mo''er... He likes it more. Because she can be unbridled happy, angry and angry in front of him Mor''er, divorce is to let you put down all the burden of the past and start over with you. But... I forgot that I couldn''t control your heart, so that we missed a time of more than four years. Now, I don''t want to miss it again Chapter 238 When the roller of the plane tore the darkness of the east at the first dawn in Los Angeles, it echoed on the runway of Los Angeles International Airport Gu Beichen looked sideways at the small window and looked at Los Angeles getting farther and farther away from his eyes. He didn''t take back his sight until he couldn''t see it. After the plane flew smoothly, Gu Beichen took the document handed to him by Xiao Jing and began to look at it... The trip was originally scheduled for about 20 days, but he couldn''t let Jian Mo leave his sight for 20 days. "If all goes well, the journey is estimated to be compressed to 15 days at most!" Xiao Jing predicted. ¡°12£¡¡± Gu Beichen spoke calmly. Xiao Jingwei was stunned, and the corners of his mouth twitched uncontrollably, "Chen Shao... This is a little too tight?" "To deal with emergencies, some places notify to arrange a time for video conference..." Gu Beichen calmly ordered, "in addition, the second uncle just turns around in his sphere of influence and walks away." "Isn''t Chen Shao going to investigate what happened six years ago?" Xiao Jing asked suspiciously. Gu Beichen slowly lay back on the seat, the eagle eyes looked at the front deeply, and his thin lips hooked his eyes if there was a sneer, "four years ago, he didn''t come back because of an accident... He has been wandering in recent years, and now he suddenly appeared. I''m afraid... It''s not a coincidence?" Xiao Jing pondered and sighed slightly, "I will continue to follow up this matter." Others don''t know the injury in those years, but... Xiao Jing still knows it. How much harm Gu mohuai has caused to Chen Shao? Now several people who know will not mention it... However, no one knows that it is a cancer in Chen Shao''s heart. If this cancer is not completely removed, it will worsen sooner or later... Finally, push chenshao into the abyss of eternal doom! The plane glided across the sky with a touch of white smoke. After several days of drizzle in Los Angeles, the sun was as clean and pure as water. It shone on people with a sultry heat. Because it is the architectural design of the overall real estate, the preparation time of this first draft is longer than that of the draft... But even so, Jian Mo dare not take it lightly. "Sister Mo, have a cup of coffee!" Mu Xiaoran put the coffee on the small table beside Jian Mo in case it splashed on the drawing. Jane Mo didn''t speak, just holding a drawing pencil to outline the frame lines After a while, she said, "did I show you the interior design I brought to you in the evening?" She said, taking back her pen and looking at mu Xiaoran with a smile, "if you can, I''ll wait for your first work." Upon hearing this, mu Xiaoran smiled and pursed his lower lip, "sister Mo, I will try my best..." "Yes!" Jane Mo nodded kindly and said, "come on." "I will!" Mu Xiaoran smiled, "sister Mo, I''ll go out first. Just call me later..." "Good!" Jian Mo nodded with a smile and watched mu Xiaoran go out. Then she changed a drawing pen and began to sketch on the drawing. Son sent Gu Beichen back to the mid levels villa last night. He didn''t have any extra words. He just said that when he came back, he would take her to grandma Gu for dinner. Well, and... Miss him! Jane Mo was a little embarrassed, but in view of being played several times in blues at night, she learned to be smart... If she didn''t reply, silence was the most favorable counterattack. The most important thing is... That kiss made her mind confused. She was afraid of the spread of that feeling. Back to the apartment, the note was in place, and the milk bag didn''t wake up After cleaning up, Jian Mo took Alvar Aalto''s book and began to read it. Jian Mo couldn''t put down his remarks and his works. Today, when she picks up the drawing pen, her inspiration is like a source, constantly pouring out Jane Mo was immersed in the thoughts of design and didn''t know what was happening outside. The little brother of the florist sent orange sea taro today. Xiang night took the lead and hurried to check the flower language. "The orange sea taro represents..." Xiangwan raised his eyebrow and said, "... I like you!" "Wow..." Ding Dang was envious. "It used to be ''gentle love'', but now it has upgraded the advertising mode to ''I like you''... I really want to know who the flower giver is?" "Me too, me too!" Xiang night hurriedly agreed, "Mo''er... Look, my heart is crisp?" They were laughing and joking outside. They looked at Jian Mo, who was immersed in his own creation, through the glass office, and couldn''t help shaking their heads and sighing "Mo Mo is still the same as four years ago, only her design!" Mo Xiaoya shook her head and sighed. Da Xiong rubbed over at the right time, "I''m the same as four years ago. I only have you in my heart!" Mo Xiaoya rolled her eyes, glanced sideways at Da Xiong, and then turned to her work space. Da Xiong licked his face and ran after him, "what are you going to eat tonight?" "Don''t bother me now..." Mo Xiaoya glanced, "look at the man who is chasing Mo Mo, and then look at you?" Big male grinned, "didn''t I save money for you to spend later?" "..." Mo xiaoarden was speechless, and then he was too lazy to talk to Da Xiong. There is a saying that where there is a will, there is a way... Daxiong and Mo Xiaoya have pursued this for many years. Now, although they haven''t caught up, it is obvious that Mo Xiaoya has been influenced by him a lot. Xiangwan and others are still there to study who the flower giver is. Some designers recruited by Jian mo after she went to the UK are also participating in the discussion, while others have strange eyes, glances or pretend not to care at all. For several days, Jane Mo''s mood was on the design drawing, and the bouquets that were bound to arrive every day were basically disposed of by them at night. However, there is one thing that Jane Mo looked forward to after a week from her helplessness at the beginning It is said that to form a person''s habit is to penetrate into her life... And Gu Beichen does! The light sound of "Di" slipped by, and Jian Mo''s stagnant thoughts gradually withdrew... She turned her head to the mobile phone on her desk and walked past after several seconds. Open the text message, it''s a photo, and there''s a paragraph President Gu: standing by the Seine River in Paris, feeling the gentle wind, I suddenly thought... We haven''t even stopped by the Los Angeles River together. Jane Mo looked at the photos of the Seine River with blurred lights, but her mind was the night before she left Los Angeles four years ago, she saw fireworks blooming by the river The corners of her mouth gradually tickled and smiled. Jian Mo turned off the text message and then turned to the design desk... But at that moment, she was intoxicated with too much emotion. It seems that many things have faded, and it seems that some things have become intoxicating I heard a lot of rumors these days when I came back... All about Gu Beichen. There has been no scandal for four and a half years, and even... After the scandal between him and Shen Chu after the JK acquisition, nothing has been revealed again. Some people speculate that it is Gu Beichen''s gentle trap from beginning to end In fact, it was not Gu Beichen who gave up the wholly-owned acquisition for Shen Chu. But Shen Chu got the absolute control of JK for Gu Beichen... Then Gu Beichen crossed the river and demolished the bridge. No one knows what kind of answer it is... The answer is confusing. No matter which answer, the fact is... Gu Beichen and Shen Chu are really not together. Jane Mo frowned and couldn''t help muttering, "doesn''t she say she''s the only woman who wants to love in her life? Why aren''t the last two together?" Chapter 239 Gu Beichen stood on the Bank of the Seine River with his hands in his pockets. The river wind gently brushed his face, raised his unruly short hair, and blew his sight deeply Xiao Jing stood far away. These days, because he had to rush back to Los Angeles, he and Chen Shao basically had very little time to rest every day. However, even so, whenever he goes to a place... Chen Shao will go to take photos of the local distinctive scenery, and then send a text message to Jian mo. Chen Shao said that he wanted him to become a habit in her life again... And this habit should be deep-rooted and need heart. Slowly converging his eyes, Gu Beichen turned to the parking space and got on the car. "Go to the airport..." Gu Beichen said faintly. Xiao Jing didn''t ask why. It''s not the first time he decided to go to the next stop. He thinks... This trip may be shortened by one or two days in the hope of Chen Shao! When sitting on the passenger plane to Sydney, Gu Beichen just said, "there are too many wolves around her... I have to watch closely." Xiao Jing grinned secretly and wanted to say: my Chen Shao, you are born to be a man. Isn''t it good to be so insecure? Shouldn''t we take out some domineering president''s style, such as wall Dong, bed Dong... All kinds of Dong, and directly sing to conquer it? However, he just joked secretly and didn''t dare to say it. One is flying in the air, the other is drawing lines with a pen... Days pass in such a busy way. Jian Mo rubbed his sour shoulder, then put the sketch into the design bucket and prepared to pick up the milk bag. These days, considering the design drawings, Li Xiaoyue basically picked up the milk bags... Today she said she would pick them up. If she promised, she should try her best to do it. At the school gate, Jane met he Yining again. They chatted and learned that her daughter and milk bag were in the same class. "Didn''t the baby hurt last time?" Jane Mo asked with concern. Why Ning shook her head with a smile and was helpless, "she is a prank teacher..." when she said this, she became more and more helpless. As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she couldn''t help chuckling. "Now all the children are bear children!" She said so, but her tone was full of happiness. He Yining nodded and waited for their children while chatting with Jane mo. Jane Jie took one by one hand and came out. Such a scene surprised not only he Yining, but even Jane mo. Who''s Jane Jay? Proud little devil Many little girls like him have gone, but they have always been indifferent not to get too close to me... Now he takes the initiative to hold the little girl''s hand? Ha ha... Jian Mo is very happy at once. Don''t be like Gu Beichen. She will be happy! He Yining could not help frowning slightly because she looked at Jian Jie''s appearance. "He is..." she said. She looked at Jian Mo and saw that she had been looking at two children. She couldn''t help but be sure that it was her son. It''s just... This son doesn''t look like Su Junli, but he looks like someone? He Yining thought and looked at Jane again Why Ning''s mind? Jane Mo doesn''t know. At this moment, Jane Mo is thinking that if the milk bag likes to be with one by one, it feels very loving to have a childhood sweetheart. Do you have it? It seems that... He Yinduo will be contacted in the future. "Dr. he, is it convenient to leave a phone call?" Jane Mo said with a smile, "look at the good relationship between the two children. If you have a picnic or go to play later, let''s go together?" Why Ning nodded with a smile and then left each other a phone call However, why rather guessed whose child Jianjie might be, but Jianmo didn''t see that the outline between the eyebrows and eyes was somewhat similar to someone. With a happy mood, Jian Mo and Jian Jie go home together "To be honest, are you staring at other people''s little girls?" Jane Mo asked with an eyebrow. Jian Jie looked up at Jian Mo and said discontentedly, "Mommy, can your mind be more unhealthy?" "..." Jane Mo skimmed her mouth and didn''t mind what Jane Jie said. She just said proudly, "Oh, if you like, you can say it boldly... I won''t laugh at you." Jian Jie laughed directly this time, "a person who doesn''t dare to say his love, but also let me say it boldly..." Jane Mo suddenly stopped and looked at Jane Jie. There was a rising anger in her sight, "what do you mean?" Jane Jie skimmed her mouth and went on without saying anything. "Jane Jay!" Jane Mo gnashed her teeth and looked at the little figure. Jane Jie kept walking, just said, "I''ll say it casually, but obviously... You did have such an experience!" Listen to what he doesn''t care, Jane Mo feels kind and stuffed... Why is she fooled by Gu Beichen and his son again? Her IQ is really urgent With a gloomy mood, Jian Mo disgruntled and turned his mouth... Because Gu Beichen couldn''t play well. ¡­¡­ Chu Zi Xiao stood at the window of the law firm, and watched the flowering of Wutong flowers gradually becoming more and more serious. "Dong Dong!" The knock on the door pulled back his thoughts, and he said, "come in!" Tang Yu opened the door and came in with a file in his hand. He looked dignified, "Xiao, look at this..." Because of the criminal case against Mo Shaochen, both sides have been busy collecting evidence for their defenders recently... The first court will be held next week, and neither side has made a greater breakthrough. Chu Zixiao turned and took the file handed over by Tang Yu. After looking through it for a while, his pupils suddenly expanded and looked at Tang Yu with an unbelievable face. Tang Yu nodded solemnly and said, "I didn''t expect that this man would be involved in the matter by the Yujing lake." Now, the riverside of Yujing lake has been fully completed and put on the market... No one thought that this case would involve what happened six years ago. "Have you asked in detail?" Chu Zixiao''s face is not good. Tang Yu shook his head, "because the event has nothing to do with it, it''s inconvenient to ask..." They all know that if they are involved in this way, they may pull out a bigger line... The most important thing is that lawyers can''t have too much curiosity. You just need to be curious about the case you handle! Chu Zixiao slightly clenched his hand holding the file. There was an indistinguishable emotion in his expression It seems that there is resistance, wandering, fear and urgency! Tang Yu looked at him and asked, "what are you going to do?" Chu Zixiao lowered his eyes and looked at the file for a while. Finally, he pulled out the page and said, "I''ll deal with this matter alone." Tang Yu seems to have guessed such a result. After all... It''s about Jian Mo''s father''s death and Jian Mo''s final choice! Chapter 240 Busy, as if Jane Mo had become the only ranking after returning home. Not only is she busy, but Su Junli is also busy because his focus has to move back to China... But even if he is busy, he will call Jian Mo every day to remind her not to forget to eat. Jian Mo''s stomach is bad, especially after she gave birth to Jian Jie... As long as the pressure is high, she will have a stomachache! Therefore, Su Junli was afraid that she would put too much pressure on herself because of her design and forget to eat. It was even worse. "Don''t worry, even if I don''t eat, I have to eat milk bags..." Jane Mo said with a smile. "It''s you. Don''t patronize the concert right away. You didn''t take good care of yourself." Su Junli smiled and answered softly, "OK." He said again, "when the weekend comes, come to Su''s house for dinner?" Last time, on uncle''s birthday, Jian Mo didn''t come because she felt inconvenient... However, Grandpa finally showed signs of letting go, and he didn''t want to give up. Jane Mo thought for a moment. She had promised Gu Beichen to visit grandma this weekend... But I don''t know if he can come back. If you continue to refuse Su Jun to leave, it''s impolite. After all... She''s also a younger generation from Grandpa su. She always finds reasons and thinks she did it on purpose. "OK..." Jane Mo answered. Anyway, there are three nights on weekends. Grandma Gu should not be affected. Su Jun left to see Jian Mo loose his mouth, and the corners of his mouth couldn''t help laughing, "then I''ll call you one day." "Well, ok..." Jane answered. Just in time, the doorbell rang. Jian Mo subconsciously shouted, "milk bag, open the door!" Because there was Jian Mo at home, Jian Jie didn''t think about who was coming, so he went to open the door When the door opened, Jian Jie looked up slightly and looked at the two people standing at the door. The black pupil fanned and looked puzzled on his small face. Gu Beichen looked down at Jian Jie, and Xiao Jing also looked at Jian Jie with a full handbag in his hand The originally scheduled 20 day trip was finally compressed to 10 days, which is not enough... After the busy work, Gu Beichen didn''t suspend for a while and came back directly by plane. After getting off the plane, Gu Beichen couldn''t wait to come to Runze garden with a gift for Jian Mo and her legendary son. However, I waited for the door to open with full expectation. Finally, when I saw Jane Jie, both people were shocked in an instant... My eyes burst out one by one and looked at Jane Jie''s small face in horror. "Chen Shao, I seem to see your reduced version!" Xiao Jing said quietly. Although there is a certain difference between this child and Chen Shao, with the charm of Jian Mo between his eyebrows and eyes, but... Let people see, it is still very similar to Chen Shao! Xiao Jing spoke again, some mechanical, "Chen Shao, congratulations... It''s possible to be a father!" Gu Beichen''s cold face gradually shrouded in a layer of complex emotions. A pair of eagle eyes looked at Jian Jie from beginning to end, and gradually narrowed "Milk bag, who is it?" Inside, there was the sound of Jian mo. Just after hanging up Su Junli''s phone, Jian Mo asked and looked around with her neck... However, because of the angle, she could only see Jian Jie, but she couldn''t see who was standing outside. Jian Jie''s small hand covered up his inner panic, grabbed the corner of his clothes, pursed his small mouth, lowered his head, and then looked back and said in a strange voice: "it''s estimated that it''s someone who may be my father..." "..." Jane Mo first thought about what Jane Jie said, and then sorted it out. Suddenly Jian Mo''s eyes widened in an instant. A sprinter had arrived at the door, and then looked at Gu Beichen''s dangerous line of sight. Jian Mo subconsciously swallowed it. She just felt that the surrounding air was frozen in Gu Beichen''s eyes... That feeling was to kill. Why is he back? When I sent him back to the middle of the mountain that night, didn''t I say that it would be almost the weekend in at least half a month? Why is he here now? Questions floated through Jane Mo''s head. She had no ability to think at all Jian Jie is seen by Gu Beichen in such an unexpected situation. Why does she think... Her next life will be miserable? "Hey..." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and tried her best to hide her hands. "Mr. Gu, why don''t you come to visit so late?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips hissed coldly and asked in a low voice, "Jane Mo, can you explain?" With that, he looked at Jane Jay. The pupil of Gu Beichen kept fanning his eyes. Well, full marks! Full marks for momentum! In terms of external conditions, it matches Mommy, that is, the internal feelings need to be investigated Jane Mo continued to play silly, "explain? Explain what?" She fanned her long eyelashes and looked innocent. "Mr. Gu, what identity are you questioning me?" "Oh, Jane Mo, you''re really good..." Gu Beichen said coldly, "if you want to pretend to be stupid, ok... I''ll watch you continue." The words fell, Gu Beichen simply stood there with his hands copying his pocket and looked at Jian mo. Xiao Jing rubbed his finger against his nose. He has been with Chen Shao for a long time. How angry Chen Shao is now... You can imagine. All along, everything has been wrong What a scum man''s child, what a mess... He Gu Beichen. He is the "scum man" in Jian Mo''s mouth! Oh! Gu Beichen sneered, and the eagle''s eyes looked at Jian Mo more and more dangerously and deeply Jane Jie is a little tired with her head up. She feels that mommy is going to die. Jian Jie pursed his lips, then looked at Xiao Jing and said, "uncle, according to my estimation... They should be deadlocked for a long time. Even, your boss may directly take my mommy and start the trial... Do you want to come in and have a cup of tea?" Xiao Jing nodded with elation Are you kidding? Chen Shao is full of joy and anger today. He doesn''t want to be muddy. "OK, OK, I still have a present for you..." Xiao Jing raised the handbag in his hand, then tilted his body... Without hindering the confrontation between the two people, he entered the room. After a while, Jane was still fighting with Beichen, but Gu was still weak "Good night!" Jane Mo didn''t know which tendon she had pulled. After saying a word, she directly wanted to get out of the way and close the door. Unfortunately, Gu Beichen had seen his mind, and as soon as he arrived... He blocked the door directly. Jane Mo was forced hard on her face. Just trying to find a way, Gu Beichen grabbed her wrist and pulled her out Taking advantage of the situation, he heard Gu Beichen''s low, gloomy voice, "Xiao Jing, take care of him!" It goes without saying who this'' he ''is! Xiao Jing responded immediately At the same time, Gu Beichen closed the door and took Jian Mo to the elevator. "Gu Beichen, this is a house robbery!" Jane Morse was a little afraid of Gu Beichen at the moment and wanted to break free, but she couldn''t pull out her wrist at all. Gu Beichen gave her a cold look, "do you want to rob you?" Chapter 241 In a hurry, Jian Mo suddenly raised the wrist held by Gu Beichen, stared and said, "aren''t you just robbing me?" "..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo speechless, and then at the moment when the elevator opened, he looked at her with contempt and pulled her into the elevator. Jane Mo is unjustifiable at the moment, and she lets Gu Beichen pull her away... She can''t hide what should come. Since she wants to say it, let''s make it clear at one time. Gu Beichen directly pressed the button to go to the underground parking lot. Along the way, his thin lips became a straight line, and his cold, carved face was even tighter. Jane Mo was a little worried... Although she didn''t think that Gu Beichen and naibao would never meet, she didn''t think of such an unexpected way to meet so quickly that she couldn''t react. Open the door, put Jane Mo into the car, fasten her seat belt... Gu Beichen then went to the driver''s seat. Start, shift into gear, boom the accelerator... A beautiful and handsome tail flick, Maybach has rushed out of the parking lot with the roaring engine sound and drove out of the community Jane Mo didn''t ask where she was going. What she needed to do now was to be silent... Otherwise, Gu Beichen would dig a hole for herself and jump in. The car is driving fast on the road... It''s no exaggeration! Jane Mo''s hand tightly pinched the seat belt, her pupils became bigger and bigger, her body was against the seat, and her lips were pursed Gu Beichen didn''t seem to know Jian Mo''s fear. The accelerator under his feet kept pressing down... A regular car was just being driven by him as a sports car. The roar of "Wuwu" echoed on the noisy road at night. Because the speed was too fast, the car shuttled like a swimming Dragon... The whistle everywhere broke the whole quiet night. Jane Mo''s lips are getting tighter and tighter. She wants to scream, but she finds that she can only look at it like this "Squeak -" The sharp sound of braking slid across the ink sky on the outskirts of Los Angeles. The harsh sound almost made Jane Mo want to scream. Jane Mo''s breathing is a little short. Gu Beichen''s sight was a little dark... There was danger in the depths. In the narrow space, the air seems to be getting thinner No one spoke, and no one even looked at each other... But his sight fell on the open space that could be touched by his sight under the high beam of the headlights. In this way, I don''t know how long the silence has been, and Jane Mo is about to lose her tension However, she really couldn''t hold it. Jane Mo suddenly unfastened her seat belt, opened the door and got out of the car Gu Beichen looked at her movements in this way. The eagle''s eyes were gradually deep and deep, which made people unable to see to the end. Just like ink space, the vastness made people feel hesitant and afraid! Gu Beichen also untied the safety belt and got out of the car. His eagle eyes were slightly frozen and looked at Jian Mo sitting on the road teeth. He couldn''t help being angry and funny. How does it feel like he bullied her now? Jian Mo didn''t take care of Beichen. He hung his head and drew a small tree branch falling to one side on the ground... It looked very wronged. Because it was night and in the suburbs, there was no one on the road except her and Gu Beichen. Once in a while, a car passed by, and no one would look at them more. Gu Beichen came over and stood in front of Jian mo At that time, he was really surprised and angry... He didn''t know what to think, so he pulled Jian Mo out! Something burst out in his heart and rushed out of his control Drag racing? Hehe, how long has he not been racing? That year, he abandoned himself. He thought his life was over But when he knows a lot of things that you have to do if you want to get them... He hides all his emotions. But just... He couldn''t control his emotions. The kind of surprise, surprise, fear, hesitation, hesitation, uncertainty... All the emotions hit him, so that he couldn''t control the speed under his feet. At night, it''s funny and funny that makes people laugh at Beichen. Jane Mo didn''t take care of Beichen. She continued to draw on the ground The sight touches Gu Beichen''s leather shoes. Maybe it''s because it''s not as bright as before. It''s a little gray! Eh, no! Why is she still in the mood to study his shoes? Jane Mo secretly despised herself, and then sighed helplessly... Decided that the enemy would not move, she would not move. If the enemy wants to move, she... Brake with silence! Gu Beichen didn''t know what Jian Mo was thinking at the moment. He just squatted down slowly. When he was almost at the same level as Jian Mo, the eagle''s eyes coagulated Jian Mo deeply. Jian Mo is stared straight by Gu Beichen... If there''s anything you can say, it''s better. What does he mean? Jane Mo was angry and muttered in her heart, but she was so stiff... Anyway, she decided not to speak first about the milk bag at the moment. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen''s low and magnetic voice sounded slowly, "why?" Jane Mo frowned slightly, looked up at Gu Beichen and asked, "what and why?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently pursed, and his temples moved slightly, as if he was holding back something, "why cheat me?" His voice was very gentle and his vision was very clear. "Why didn''t you tell me his existence? Why did you say..." he paused and said some gloomily, "he''s a scum man''s child?" When Jian Mo heard Gu Beichen say the word "scum man", she couldn''t help laughing, "Mr. Gu, do you think you have a good image? Do I have to say that it''s my dear ex husband''s child?" Gu Beichen was joked by Jian Mo, but his heartless words made him depressed. Is he a scum man? Hehe Jian Mo suddenly received a smile from the corner of her mouth, pursed her mouth, looked at Gu Beichen, looked at herself dangerously, and couldn''t help grinning, "well... President Gu, I''ll just make a joke. Don''t mind!" "Jane Mo!" Gu Beichen gnashed his teeth. "You think I''m a scum man. I don''t recognize it... In addition, you secretly gave birth to my child. How do you calculate this account?" Jane Mo closed her eyes and felt that sitting and talking about this problem was too arrogant. She simply stood up... Then looked down at Gu Beichen! However, when Gu Beichen stood up and she needed to look up, she felt that she had made another mistake... She should have sat down just now, at least look up! "What is secret?" Because of the sudden discovery of Jane Jie, Jane Mo said in a disorderly and capricious way, "I''m aboveboard." Gu Beichen also sneered, "in that case... Why didn''t you tell me openly when I asked who your child is?" "I said, scum man!" Jane morwei picked her chin and smiled falsely at the corners of her mouth, "isn''t that you?" "..." this time, Gu Beichen was speechless. How did they get around the problem of "scum man"? Chapter 242 Gu Beichen''s face is as good as that of Jianchen''s The wind at night in early summer is very cool and gentle, neither hot nor cold, especially comfortable. It''s just that neither of the two people facing each other at the moment is in the mood to feel it. "Gu Zong, you brought me here..." Jane Mo looked around, "isn''t it going to throw the body into the wilderness?" Gu Beichen smiled. His thin lips were hooked with a very light but visible smile... That kind of smile stagnated in the corners of his mouth and never spread. Jian Mo swallowed involuntarily and felt Gu Beichen''s dangerous breath. She subconsciously wanted to step back "Ah", Jane Mo''s heel tripped over the road teeth, and her body fell back uncontrollably Suddenly, the powerful palm grabbed her waist, and the momentum of her falling was forcibly held. The familiar breath came to her face. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s dangerous pressing action and hurriedly said, "Gu Beichen, what do you want to do?" "Open place..." Gu Beichen''s thin lip side drew a smile of evil cunning, "lonely men and women, what do you think I do?" field operations? Jian Mo instantly widened her eyes, "Gu Beichen... You, you, you... You dare!" She clenched her teeth and was in a hurry. She put her hands on Gu Beichen''s chest and tried to distance herself from him. However, because her body is bent backward at the moment, she is supported by Gu Beichen''s arm, and she can''t use her strength at all "What dare I, eh?" The voice of light Yi overflowed Gu Beichen''s thin lips. He leaned down at the right time and lowered a few points, "anyway... I''m a scum man. Shouldn''t I... Do some scum man''s behavior to sit down?" Gu Beichen was laughing. His smile became more and more evil and dangerous. The eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly, and two clear lights were emitted from the depths. "Moreover, I can communicate with you openly here... About giving birth to children!" "..." Jian Mo was completely defeated by Gu Beichen. "Gu Beichen, I just spoke without thinking..." she gnashed her teeth. "If you want to talk, at least, we should have an equal position to talk!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s eyes with fear and resistance, and laughed at himself Is that how she resisted him? Gu Beichen made a sudden effort on his arm and held Jian Mo up "Well..." With a dull hum, Jane Mo bumped her nose into Gu Beichen''s solid chest. It was sour... Her tears were about to fall. He did it on purpose... Jane Mo gnashed her teeth in resentment. "Now it''s an equal position. How do you talk to me?" Gu Beichen asked coldly. Jian Mo was very depressed. A pair of bright and clear black pupils looked at Gu Beichen. After a while, they seemed to have decided and said, "it''s about milk bags. Let''s go back and talk!" Talking in front of the milk bag, Gu Beichen can''t do anything to her, can he? In case of collapse, she still has the killer mace of milk bag Jian Mo slipped the cunning light in his sight, but didn''t escape Gu Beichen''s sight. He sneered and asked with a slightly deep look: "do you mean... Go back and talk?" Jian Mo nodded... In case of unpleasant talk, Gu Beichen threw her here. That''s why we shouldn''t call the ground ineffective every day. She didn''t take her cell phone, she was still wearing slippers and home clothes... She collapsed! Gu Beichen hissed coldly, "OK, I''ll spend it with you today... I''ll see what bend you can turn for me today?" Then he opened the co pilot''s door and motioned Jane Mo to get on the bus. Jane Mo felt a little blocked and depressed, but she didn''t want to escape On the way back, Jane thought about several possible situations, and finally found that... Milk bags may leave her? At the thought that the milk bag might be robbed by Gu Beichen, Jian Mo''s mood was not beautiful for a moment Along the way, Jane Mo looked at the passing scenery outside the window in silence. Her short hair was a little disordered because of her behavior, but it didn''t affect her. On the glass window, the outline of Jian Mo''s face loomed. Gu Beichen glanced and wanted to say to the woman... He wouldn''t take everything from her, but wanted to enter everything from her. However, he knew... To make this woman accept him faster, he had to be a little careful. ¡­¡­ Jian Jie looked at a series of hand-made clothes placed on the table, and his eyes were as bright as they were about to shine. "These are specially bought by Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing said with an eyebrow. Jian Jie looked at Xiao Jing, then picked up a bumblebee and said, "why did he buy this for me?" Who is Xiao Jing? He was mixed up in various fields since childhood... Later, he was taken to him by the Dragon owl, and then to Chen Shao. There are endless people and things he has seen. Although Jian Jie is smart and calm, he is a child in the end... Xiao Jing knows at a glance that he especially likes this set of changing hands. However, Chen Shao has the same hobby as him... For this, Xiao Jing thinks that the blood relationship is really special. "Xiaojie Shao..." Xiao Jing planned to get close, "what do you think of... Chenshao?" Jian Jie looked at him indifferently, "no evaluation! And again, don''t call me Xiao Jie Shao... I don''t know you very well yet!" "..." Xiao Jing grinned. He didn''t worry too much about the distance. He just asked, "why don''t you evaluate Chen Shao?" Jian Jie calmly put away all the things he did, and then calmly said, "who is he? I still need to investigate. I like these things very much, but I won''t..." then he looked at Xiao Jing, "Mommy said... No one can get it by nature, and all things must have a premise... That is to give." Xiao Jing frowned. Is Jane Mo a way to educate a child? Is it too strict? What''s more, why does he think... What does Xiao Jie Shao mean? It seems that it refers to the surrounding hand, but... Actually refers to chenshao? "Uncle Jing, do you think your boss can handle my mommy?" Jian Jie sat on the sofa, his eyes very curious, not as indifferent as his little face. Xiao Jing laughed and shook his head without hesitation. Jane Jie said "Hmm" and then said seriously, "if Mommy is too easy to handle, I will think her IQ is really wrong... But I''m really not optimistic about your boss." Xiao Jing twitched at the corner of his mouth, "why?" "There are too many people who want to be my father... He doesn''t seem to have the most advantage." Jane Jie said calmly, and then looked at the time. "They have been out for more than an hour. If they don''t come back, I''m going to sleep." He said so, but his eyes looked at the door, obviously expecting. "..." Xiao Jing felt enchanted. Don''t ordinary children have such emotions? Either see the father who is almost the same as himself excited, happy, hesitant or resist... Or worry and fear that a man takes his mother away? Why is xiaojieshao''s performance so unpleasant? The scene was bleak. In due time, there was a sound of opening the door Xiao Jing and Jian Jie both looked and saw that Jian Mo and Gu Beichen came in one after anothe Chapter 243 "Chen Shao, Miss Jane..." Xiao Jing has got up. Jian Jie blinked, black pupil looked at Gu Beichen, and then looked at Jian Mo''s expression. He couldn''t help but curling his mouth and said, "I''m going out for a ride... I didn''t talk at all!" Xiao Jing suddenly looked black Jian Mo looked at Jian Jie, then Gu Beichen, and took the lead in saying, "the relationship between you... You''ll know by looking at your face." "Mommy, can you explain more casually?" Jane Jie frowned slightly. "In this world, don''t you know there is a word called ''hitting your face''?" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she suddenly clenched her teeth However, compared with her, Gu Beichen smiled with his thin lips, and then... Waited for Jian Mo''s explanation. Xiao Jing automatically became invisible, went to the corner and decided to watch a good play by himself... Of course, solo music is not as good as public music. Thinking, Xiao Jing quietly took out his mobile phone, then opened the shooting and pretended to be serious. "He''s the man who offers you little tadpoles..." Jian Mo gave Gu Beichen a cold look and introduced him to Jian Jie, and then looked at Jian Jie who despised her and introduced him to Gu Beichen. "He''s the product of little tadpoles!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Gu Beichen and Jian Jie are speechless at the same time. Did you introduce the relationship between father and son like this? Xiao Jing kept smiling in the corner... He was almost hurt internally. He couldn''t help but praise Jian mo. Look at the big and small faces of Chen Shao and Jian Jie. Why did he feel so synchronized? Jane Mo didn''t want to see their father and son. She poured herself a glass of water and planned to leave some time for them to digest. Both Jian Jie and Gu Beichen know their relationship with each other. However, after being introduced by Jian Mo, they become very strange, but they are a little embarrassed when they are big and small. Gu Beichen sat down. Ying Mou first looked at Jian Jie and then looked at Jian Mo, "since you want to come back and talk, you can..." he paused slightly and his eyes were slightly deep. "I can not pursue you for giving birth to my child without authorization, but... About custody..." "Give you what you want... Anyway, don''t expect me to compromise." Jane Mo pretended not to care and said, but in her heart she spread Gu Beichen''s stomach all over. ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± The father and son were at ease about Jian Mo and were speechless again. Jian Jie looked at Jian Mo contemptuously. "Mommy, can you stop talking so casually on serious issues? You make me really doubt... Did you forget to take your medicine tonight?" Jian Mo glared at Jian Jie fiercely. "I''m talking about a very serious problem. You question my IQ... Did you take the medicine?" Mother and son glared at each other! Jian Mo said casually. She just didn''t want Gu Beichen to think she cared. There was room for maneuver when she argued again. Jian Jie feels that Jian Mo is too mentally retarded to want... At first glance, his father is not a liar. Gu Beichen looked at the confrontation between Jian Mo and Jian Jie, and put a thin smile on his thin lips. "If you don''t care about him, you won''t give birth to him, and you won''t deliberately mislead me when I appear..." he calmly analyzed, "Jian Mo, if you don''t want to separate from him, you can!" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she looked suspiciously at Gu Beichen... She wouldn''t think he was so kind. Sure enough "It''s very simple. He''s the child of the family. I''m sure I''ll take him back." Gu Beichen still spoke faintly, "but the child''s growing environment is very important... My son can''t grow up without a mother." "Finding him a stepmother may be counterproductive." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil gradually deepened, "so, the best of both worlds, that is..." he deliberately paused, and then said, "... You become my wife!" Xiao Jing couldn''t help but praise Gu Beichen. Chen Shao''s aboveboard reason... It''s very good. Jane Mo smiled and hypocritically hooked her smile to an arc and didn''t move. "I won''t get married because of my children..." she raised her eyebrows. "Otherwise... What else can I do today?" "I almost forgot the marriage..." and then I almost forgot it! " "..." Jane Mo immediately frowned, "what do you mean?" "Originally, if it didn''t happen... He..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Jie with a slight frown. "My name is Jianjie. You can call me Xiaojie or Jemi." Jian Jie seemed to see through Gu Beichen''s mind and said. Gu Beichen smiled and then looked at Jian Mo and said, "if there''s nothing about Xiao Jie, I think... I can''t take it out and talk about it, but obviously, I have to say it now." The more Gu Beichen said, the more confused he became. Jane Mo looked at him with a warning face, "what do you mean?" "Jian mo..." Gu Beichen smiled. "I didn''t sign the divorce agreement!" ''teng '', Jian Mo stood up and stared at Gu Beichen Gu Beichen''s cold face was so indifferent, "besides... What if I signed it? Do you have a model? And... It seems that we didn''t go to the Civil Affairs Bureau to go through the formalities!" "Gu Beichen, can you be more mean?" Jane Mo was immediately "rubbed" up by the anger, as if her brain could not think. Jian Jie looked at Jian Mo and suddenly said, "Mommy, I saw her divorce lawsuit at Er Ma''s house that day. Er Ma told me that it seems that she has been separated for more than two years... What''s the matter in the law?" "Shua", Gu Beichen''s fierce eyes looked at Jian Jie... The ink pupil was as deep as the sea. Do you have such a son? Xiao Jing is about to be suffocated into internal injury. At this moment, he really can''t help but want to praise Jian Jie... Jian Mo has such a bright baby around him. Chen Shao''s road is... Difficult! "Yes, we''ve been separated for more than four years, and President Gu hasn''t come to try to recover... I''m afraid it''s not good if we start a lawsuit?" Jane Mo immediately picked her chin, "so, Mr. Gu, please don''t talk about the past, will you?" "Jane Mo, do you think... It''s hard for me to invalidate this agreement?" Gu Beichen hissed coldly. Jian Mo was suddenly found by Gu Beichen after passing by. In addition, she was frightened out and came back with a frozen mind, because Jian Jie''s sensible words had become calm. "I think..." Jian Mo opened with a smile and full confidence on her face. "Mr. Gu won''t want to... Meet Zixiao in court?" His nephew filed a lawsuit for his wife''s divorce... Jane Mo suddenly found that the picture was so beautiful that she couldn''t bear to look directly at it. However, for the sake of milk bags, she will not step back! Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes squinted at Jian Mo, and two cold lights shone from the ink pupil, "Jian Mo, do you just want to draw a line with me?" The calm voice didn''t have much intonation, but at last it was light and oppressive. Chapter 244 Jane Mo pursed her lips. When Gu Beichen looked at her more and more deeply, he slowly opened his mouth, "yes!" When Jane Mo said a word, her eyes were calm After those two years, especially after her mother died, she got the divorce agreement, whether it was misunderstanding or truth... Her feelings for Gu Beichen were frozen at that moment. She didn''t understand what had happened in the past four years, and she didn''t know what Gu Beichen was going to do now... However, Jane Mo felt ridiculous because the milk bag talked about the engagement again. Gu Beichen looked at Jian mo. after more than four years, the woman obviously pretended better than before in terms of momentum and calmness At that time, maybe he suddenly found Xiaojie. She was stunned for a moment and couldn''t react... But obviously, her thoughts gradually became clear now. Because of the confrontation between the two people, the breath gradually becomes heavy, and even the surrounding air becomes thin. Jane Jie sighed. "Can I remind the next two?" The childish voice broke the rigid atmosphere in time, "shouldn''t you discuss raising me now?" He said, looking at Jian Mo first and then Gu Beichen, "or... You''re just using me as a cover," Jian Jie was dissatisfied, "you don''t pay attention to me like this, which means you hurt me?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Now, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo are speechless to Jian Jie at the same time. Jian Jie still looked at Jian Mo with a clear mind, "in addition, Mommy... According to the inducement you gave me before, didn''t you say you were trapped by a scum man to have me? Why did you have a marriage relationship with a man who is estimated to be my father?" "..." Jian Mo continued speechless. Jane Jie shook her head. "Can you explain this to me first?" He seemed to be very tangled, "because if you are unmarried and pregnant, I am the legendary ''illegitimate child''... But if you are pregnant in marriage, I am a normal child... This definition is very important to me!" The atmosphere of the original stalemate was suddenly broken by Jian Jie''s words. Xiao Jing suddenly felt that... Chen is less black, but Xiao Jie is more black. "Cough, about this problem..." when Jian Mo faced her son, she was still weak, "... Well... Can we talk in private?" Jian Jie rolled his eyes and looked at Jian Mo discontentedly. "Then can I ask, if you are so deadlocked, can I go to bed first? I don''t care if you go to work tomorrow, but I have to go to school." Then he turned to Gu Beichen and said, "let me know the result tomorrow... Good night!" Jian Jie calmly turned his body and waved with Xiao Jing... Then, under the attention of the three adults, he walked to the bedroom. However, when he came to the passage, he suddenly stopped, then looked back at Gu Beichen and said, "my personal idea is that I won''t live with any of you because of your competition... If you don''t want to see the three of us living in three separate places, the only way is to catch up with my mommy again!" He smiled, "goodluck!" Xiao Jing''s body began to tremble with a smile. Emma, even if Chen Shao deducted several percent of the year-end bonus, he''s worth it today... He loves Chen Shao''s son... Ha ha! Gu Beichen "Shua" for a moment. When Xiao Jing was about to die of internal injury, his eyes glanced at him, and then looked at Jian mo. Ying''s eyes said slightly, "Xiao Jie said that the method is very good..." his thin lips were shallow, "in order to implement, I won''t go today." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, looked at Gu Beichen with a smile and said, "sorry, since this is the real estate under my name, and you are just my ex husband, I have the right to ask you to leave." "Even if I''m your ex husband..." Gu Beichen said the words "ex husband" gnashing his teeth, "... But I have the right to contact my son." The implication is that he stayed for Jane Jie, not her Jane mo... She peacock opened the screen and made amorous wool? In terms of language art, Jian Mo found that she can''t draw with a pen... It''s different from Gu Beichen who often has to fight in the mall. "It''s up to you..." Jane Mo has been unable to argue. "The living room belongs to you, cross the border and kill!" Xiao Jing looked at Jian Mo, who was defeated, and was ready to wash. Then he opened his mouth, "Chen Shao, I''ll go first... Well, I''ll pick you up tomorrow morning!" "Yes!" Gu Beichen faintly answered, and the obvious thin lips scratched a smile. His son is his. He has been crazy all night. The most important thing is... His son is his. It''s a matter of minutes to capture Jane Morse. Gu Beichen was more and more happy, but when he looked at the huge living room, he was unhappy again... The woman he clearly liked was in the same room and couldn''t eat! One night, Jianjie took care of his sleep. He has always been a very disciplined child. Jane Mo lay in bed turning left and right and couldn''t sleep... One night of "negotiation", she found herself surrounded by Gu Beichen into a strange circle, a strange circle that seemed to sink her again. "Alas..." Jane Mo sighed, turned over again and closed her eyes slowly. Suddenly Jane Mo suddenly opened her eyes and sat up. She looked at the front with bright eyes. Then she reacted. She came back to negotiate and thought that there was a milk bag. Gu Beichen couldn''t say anything too much... He couldn''t even move. However, she made a mistake Because, from beginning to end, the milk bag seems to be helping her. In fact, it puts forward some questions for Gu Beichen, and then reminds Gu Beichen? "Jane Jie... You''re dead!" Jane Mo was very angry about her hindsight and was fooled by her father and son who met for the first time. But what can I do? Who made her so stupid that she just didn''t react? Jian Mo fell back to bed feebly... Up to now, she can only take one step at a time. Thinking, she closed her eyes and planned to go to bed first However, Jian Mo seems not to know that Gu Beichen, who is outside at the moment, is creeping into Jian Jie''s house Jane slept softly under the wall lamp. Gu Beichen gently took a small stool and sat down beside the bed... Eagle eyes looked at his son, who was almost the same as when he was a child, and his thin lips gradually aroused a smile. "The first meeting made you laugh!" Gu Beichen said softly, "Hello, I''m your father... Gu Beichen!" In this way, Gu Beichen introduced himself. Suddenly, his heart was full of happiness. That feeling was like sweet marshmallow filling his heart It''s obviously itchy and uncomfortable, but it''s sweet and makes him happy. "I see your mind," Gu Beichen whispered again. "I will try to recover her... Not because of your existence, but... I love her!" The thin lips gradually raised a smile, which was full of deep joy. Chapter 245 Early in the morning, it comes slowly in the sun... When the dawn injects a ray of light mischievously through the thick curtains, Jian Mo slowly opens her tired eyes. I fell asleep very late last night because I was tangled for too long... She was so sleepy because of the sequelae of less sleep! Jane Mo walked to the bedroom door with some vanity and took a look at the time Sliding door... Eh, why can''t you open it? Jane pressed down the doorknob again, but she still couldn''t open it Thoughts gradually gathered back. Jian Mo remembered that last night, in order to prevent Gu Beichen from touching the house, she locked it. But obviously... She thinks too much. Because she slept late, let alone Gu Beichen forced her way in... There was no movement at the door. "Milk bag, wait for me, I''ll make breakfast..." Jane Mo half narrowed her bleary eyes and entered the bathroom. No one answered her all the time, and Jane Mo didn''t care. After washing and gargling, she woke up a lot... However, when she saw that the table was full of breakfast food, she didn''t react for a moment. "Good morning, Mommy!" Jane Jie looked back at Jane mo. "Good morning..." after Jane Mo said suspiciously, she looked around and didn''t find Gu Beichen. While drawing back his sight, Yu Guang caught a glimpse of the figure coming out of the kitchen... Jane Mo immediately widened her eyes. Gu Beichen was holding a tray with milk and freshly beaten orange juice on it. "Good morning..." Gu Beichen said with a smile. Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and said subconsciously, "good morning..." "Have breakfast, and then I''ll take Xiao Jie to school!" Gu Beichen sat down opposite. "If you don''t mind me seeing you off, I won''t mind either." "No need..." Jane Mo turned her mind and was thinking about when Gu Beichen was so good at cooking, so she heard Jane Jie say, "these were bought by unknown daddy." "Unknown daddy?" Jane Mo said she was thrilled by the name of Jane Jie. Jian Jie said calmly, "although he is my own father, he may not be my future father... So, to be determined!" Gu Beichen''s dissatisfied eyes were deep, but he didn''t resist... At least, his son didn''t resent him. "Xiao Jing will bring someone to decorate the study later..." Gu Beichen poured orange juice for Jian Mo and said. "No, I don''t need..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, thin lips shallow Yang, "I need it!" "..." Jian Mo suddenly looked at Gu Beichen, and her eyes gradually turned to resist. This girl won''t be here after last night, will she? Obviously... Her dream has come true! "In order to cultivate feelings with my son, I need to move in..." Gu Beichen said calmly. "Of course, everyone is very familiar. I''ll do it myself. You don''t need to help me clean up." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth. She never knew... Gu Beichen was so shameless. "I disagree!" Jane Mo was in a bad mood in the morning. "You need to cultivate feelings with your son. Take your son to your villa... I''m not welcome here." Jian Jie turned his mouth and refused to comment on what Jian Mo "disliked" him. Gu Beichen said calmly: "but I still have to implement the wife chasing plan..." he looked at Jian Mo and raised his thin lips lightly, "why don''t you go back to the villa with me? I''ll prepare a big table for you to draw a design!" "Gu Beichen, you''ve had enough!" Jane Mo is about to be tortured crazy by Gu Beichen''s attitude. She hates to put down the orange juice cup and plans to go to work. Anyway, Gu Beichen wants to send milk bags, so let him send them... Let him send enough! Jane Mo changed her clothes and didn''t care about the father and son on the table. She planned to ignore it directly Hum, she hasn''t settled the account with the milk bag that Gu Beichen and her son dug a hole for her last night! "You can''t bring this bag to your stomach..." suddenly, you can''t take this bag to your stomach! " "..." Jian Mo''s mouth twitched completely, "Mr. Gu, did anyone tell you that... Home men are not suitable for your crazy setting?" Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "no... only someone said that I was born to conquer everything. I can be the president and play cold... I can hold a virtuous husband!" Virtuous husband? What the hell is that? Jane Mo has been unable to argue with Gu Beichen. She changes her shoes and plans to leave... She can see that she is entangled by a "rogue" president. "Take this to the company!" Gu Beichen saw that Jian Mo was angry and angry, and his mood was not to mention how beautiful. Jane Mo clenched her teeth, then took it and smiled, "thank you..." she suddenly turned with a smile and walked out of the door angrily. "According to my observation," Jian Jie said at the right time, "uncle lost in strategy." "Huh?" Gu Beichen looks at his son. Jane Jie took out a paper towel and wiped his mouth elegantly like the prince of an English noble before saying, "the way of Uncle leaving is too gentle, not like you..." he thought for a moment and then said, "well, thick skinned!" "..." Gu Beichen suddenly understood that Jian Mo''er was choked by what Jian Jie said last night. ¡°Sorry£¡¡± Jian Jie shrugged his shoulders. "Growing up abroad, you really haven''t had time to understand China''s written culture in detail... So you can change ''thick skinned'' into your favorite words!" "..." Gu Beichen''s cold face suddenly cracked because of Jian Jie''s words. ¡­¡­ Jane Mo had a headache. She stared at the design drawing all day and didn''t move. The whole person was in poor spirit. Looking at the prototype of the design, Jane Mo rubbed the eyebrows and planned to make a cup of coffee to refresh herself When the talent went out, she saw the express brother come in. She didn''t care and walked to the tea room. "Jane Mo''s express, please sign for it!" The express boy handed things to Sun Ke and said. "Mo Mo, your express..." Sun Ke shouted when he saw that Jian Mo had just come out. Jane Mo was a little surprised. Suspiciously, she went over and signed for it. Then she saw the express brother take out a cup of milk tea and a small box of dessert from the incubator. "This is yours..." he smiled and took out the others, "these are the owner of the design department!" Sun Ke was stunned. Didn''t he expect to have them? "This is a message card for you..." the express boy handed the card to Jian Mo, and then took the receipt and left. Jian Mo opened it, and there were handwritten characters with pen power penetrating the strength of the card paper... The font was deeply restrained. "It''s my fault that you didn''t have a good rest last night... Don''t put too much pressure on yourself. Only a relaxed and happy mood can create a warm home!" There was no signature, but Jane Mo''s heart was warm at this moment! Chapter 246 Sun Ke looked at Jane Mo''s smiling face, which was obviously different from the fatigue on her face when she just signed the express. She couldn''t help joking and asked, "Mo Mo, who is so considerate?" She looked at the cup Jane Mo put down. "Now you''re going to make coffee. Afternoon tea will arrive." Jane Mo shrugged. "It''s still unknown..." she said honestly, "I just feel that the words are very warm." Sun Ke smiled, because these days there are a bunch of flowers every day, rain or shine... I don''t have much curiosity about afternoon tea like today. However, when Sun Ke saw the logo of M & apex on the cake box, he couldn''t help but ''tut tut'', "this man is really a big deal... These are not a small sum of money." M & apex has a limited number of desserts per day and buys so many at once... Money alone can''t handle it. "This is much more than so and so who sent flowers..." after laughing and joking, Jian Mo shouted Xiangwan and mu Xiaoran to distribute milk tea and dessert to everyone. Of course, it''s necessary to gossip for a while at night and argue that the one who will send flowers in the future should send morning tea instead... In this way, we can save money for morning tea and afternoon tea. Jane Mo smiled and didn''t answer... Because it was the same person. Jane opened the package of the sweet tea and took it back to the office "Mo''er, how about having dinner together in the evening?" Jane Mo pursed her lips and smiled... This way made her cry and laugh, but her heart was inexplicably sweet. That feeling... It''s like going back to teenagers, campus advertising. There is an irresistible temptation in innocence, which stabs people''s hearts... However, Jane Mo is a little afraid. It''s not that she doesn''t believe in love, but... If it''s based on milk bags this time, it may not be good for milk bags. Xiangyu engineering design department is relaxed and happy because of the delicious afternoon tea, but at the moment, the first court in Los Angeles is tense and dignified. Chu Zixiao, as the defense lawyer of a criminal case most concerned by the legal community in Los Angeles, is sharply refuting the prosecution''s point of view Mo Shaochen''s eyes were slightly drooping, with a pen in his hand. He turned at will, calmly listened to the relevant listed by Chu Zixiao, and the corners of his mouth couldn''t help recalling slightly. The case has attracted attention, and his confrontation with Chu Zixiao has attracted the attention of the media and insiders. Today is the first court session. Everyone knows... There will be no result. Sure enough... After the judge said to postpone, the first hearing was over. The defense and prosecution left one after another. Chu Zixiao and Mo Shaochen smiled at each other and heard Chu Zixiao say, "ask Beichen out for dinner in the evening?" "Good!" Mo Shaochen answered. Jane Mo is back. He has been busy with the case recently. In the evening, he goes to the bar to "accompany" Xiaochu. He hasn''t had time to ask about Beichen and Jane mo. "I''ll call him..." Chu Zixiao said with a smile. Mo Shaochen didn''t go, but leaned lazily on the table and waited The "buzzing" mobile phone vibrated. Gu Beichen calmly took the mobile phone on the desk, looked at the call and picked it up. He said softly, "huh?" "Shaochen and I just got out of court and had dinner together in the evening?" Chu Zixiao said faintly, "we haven''t sat together for a long time..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "I''m afraid I don''t have time tonight..." Jian Mo doesn''t know whether she has eaten the pastries he ordered or whether she will have dinner with him in the evening... However, Xiao Jie said that she would let Li Xiaoyue pick him up in the evening and make it clear that she can''t let go of the opportunity? "Yes?" Chu Zixiao gave a light sigh and immediately said, "then come directly to blues when you''re finished!" "Well, good..." Gu Beichen answered and hung up the phone. The mobile phone didn''t put down. Gu Beichen endured, or called out Jian Mo''s number and sent it: have dinner together in the evening, huh? Jian Mo is looking at the card. Gu Beichen''s words on it are as strong and powerful as his people There was a text message prompt sound from the mobile phone. She converged her eyes, picked up the mobile phone and crossed it... Looking at Gu Beichen''s confirmed text message, she couldn''t help but reply in tears and laughter Mo''er: since President Gu''s dessert is so pleasant, it''s OK! President Gu: should I thank Lord longen? Looking at Gu Beichen''s seemingly tangled text message, Jane Mo instantly smiled... Why didn''t she find out before that Gu Beichen is still pretty cute? Gu Beichen looked at his mobile phone. Jian Mo didn''t reply again, but... His thin lips gradually filled with a smile. If... A love needs a beginning, I''ll write you a beautiful memory. That night was the beginning, but it was not the crux of my love for you. Xiao Jie, it''s our crystallization... But it''s still not the condition for me to love you. Jane mo... Two years of marriage brought us very close, but also very far. But at this moment... I just want to please you. Put down your mobile phone and Gu Beichen continues to deal with the affairs of the group As the patrol time is shortened by half, he needs to deal with many things in these days... Very busy! However, he is happy "Dong Dong!" The quiet space was broken by a knock on the door. Before Gu Beichen could answer, Xiao Jing had pushed the door and came in. His face was a little dignified and said, "there''s an accident in chenshao, Nanshao!" "Rub" for a moment, Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing with sharp eyes. "Nanshao is on a mission to Los Angeles this time. No one knows... But I don''t know why the news leaked. There was an accident..." Xiao Jing said. "I''m in the hospital now... Just when Li Shao called you and said the line was busy, I called me." Gu Beichen was just answering a call from a foreign executive. Li Yunze was busy entering the operating room and couldn''t attend to the waiting... Thinking about Lin Nannan''s temporary return, no one knew. I''m afraid he had a task, so he had to call Xiao Jing for notice. Gu Beichen had already got up. He took the suit and went outside to wear it. His face was a little dignified. I haven''t been back to Los Angeles since I fell out with Su Xiaoxiao and returned to the army four years ago. I didn''t expect... It''s such a way to meet back. The originally sunny weather suddenly became gloomy when it was almost time to get off work. The early summer in Los Angeles was the same as the child''s face. It changed as it changed. "Mo Mo, aren''t you leaving yet?" Mo Xiaoya saw that Jane Mo was still in the office, pushed the door in and asked. Jane Mo shook her head, "you go first. I have to deal with it here..." "Well, don''t be too late." Mo Xiaoya explained, "there''s still some time anyway." Jane Mo smiled and nodded. After watching Mo Xiaoya go, she continued to draw a picture with a pen Jane Mo called Li Xiaoyue before and asked her to pick up the milk bag. Now she''s just waiting... To have dinner with Gu Beichen! The corners of her mouth made a mockery of herself. Jane Mo suddenly felt that she had a little expectation at the moment. Thinking and looking at the time, it''s past six... According to the habit of four years ago, Gu Beichen should be off work now. Although he is the leader of the group, he has no point after work. As time went by, the sky became more gloomy. When the pointer slid past seven... Jane Mo''s heart couldn''t help getting empty Chapter 247 The gloomy weather makes people feel gloomy and depressed. Time goes back to just six o''clock In the operating room of Huakang hospital, Li Yunze''s forehead kept sweating. The nurse carefully wiped him while not affecting his surgical vision "Dang" sounded crisp. When Li Yunze took out the warhead next to Lin Nannan''s heart and put it on the plate, his eyes calmly but sharply looked at the test instrument. Seeing that all the data were within the controllable range, the heart he had been carrying finally slowly fell back to his chest. "You can deal with the rest..." Li Yunze said to the second deputy doctor, and then looked at the people in the operating room. "This operation, out of this operating room, I don''t want anyone to explore the way." The crowd nodded, "understand, Li Shao." Li Yunze nodded and left the operating room first. Outside, Gu Beichen looked at the lamp in the operation. When there was a movement to open the door, the eagle''s eyes fell on Li Yunze who came out. Because he had just returned to the office after an operation, he saw Lin Nannan fall on the ground of the office... Li Yunze hurried into the operating room without much thought. After seven or eight hours of high-intensity surgery, he was a little tired "How''s it going south?" Gu Beichen asked. Li Yunze nodded. "The bullet has been taken out. Next, we need to observe... The warhead is the latest sniper rifle warhead of desert eagle. The bullet deviates from the heart by less than one centimeter. If there is a slight deviation..." He didn''t go on. If there is a slight deviation, it goes without saying what the situation is. In this case, how much willpower does it take to get to his office when everyone doesn''t pay attention? Most importantly, if he was not in the hospital at that time, the consequences would be unimaginable! Gu Beichen''s cold face is already dark. It''s not easy for them to intervene in this matter for the time being. After all... Now the identity of the south is different. If you step in now, you may touch something you can''t touch "Wait until you wake up!" Gu Beichen spoke coldly. Li Yunze nodded. "I won''t go back tonight. I''ll take care of the south side. Go and be busy." At that time, I informed Gu Beichen that I was afraid that Lin might have something on the way to the south. With Gu Beichen''s ability, I could transfer some things... Now the operation has been successfully completed, so we naturally don''t need everyone to stay. Gu Beichen looked at the time. It was already six o''clock... He nodded and turned away. When he got to the car, Xiao Jing called Jian Mo while starting the car However, no matter how you call, you can''t get through. With a slight frown, Gu Beichen said, "go to Lingyu international." "Yes!" Xiao Jing looked in the rearview mirror and the back seat answered. Jian Mo''s temperament Gu Beichen knows that since she promised him, she won''t suddenly break the appointment... There are many reasons why the phone can''t get through, but she didn''t fool him! Thinking of Jian Mo''s stubbornness, Gu Beichen''s thin lips couldn''t help spilling a faint smile. Suddenly Just when Gu Beichen looked with a soothing smile, Xiao Jing said with a cold face: "Chen Shao, someone is following!" Gu Beichen suddenly sank his face and looked back slightly... Behind the car, there was an inky blue business car not far or near. Although this is the main road, and the road is everyone''s... however, whether Xiao Jing or Gu Beichen came out of the storm, whether they are tracking or not, they can be seen at almost a glance. Gu Beichen didn''t know whether the other party was coming for him or the paparazzi who wanted to know something. He calmly converged his eyes and said, "get rid of it!" Xiao Jing answered and then accelerated the speed And they just accelerated, and the car behind them also accelerated... It seems that their mind is clear. Maybach kept accelerating. Because he didn''t know the other party''s purpose, Xiao Jing didn''t dare to drive to Lingyu international at the moment... He just drove to the street with a small number of people, and then accelerated to the car behind. Gu Beichen gently closed his thin lips, took out his mobile phone and dialed Jian mo... But he still couldn''t get through. The eagle''s eyes were slightly cold with a well-known radian. After Gu Beichen installed his mobile phone, he looked indifferently at the reversing mirror The business car is like going out and following them closely! Xiao Jing looked calm, because there were too many vehicles on the main street, and it was not easy to get rid of the tracking. However, if he came to the uninhabited street, don''t talk about his driving skills, even between cars. The powerful engine doomed the distance between each other... After 20 minutes, Xiao Jing successfully got rid of the business car. However, just when he wanted to slow down and turn back from another road, his face was shocked! "Chen Shao, the brake was moved..." Xiao Jing said this sentence with a pale face and fine beads of sweat on his forehead. At this moment, the speed has exceeded 150 miles. Without braking, the consequences are unimaginable Just for a moment, both Xiao Jing and Gu Beichen knew that the purpose of the tracking car just now was just to make them speed up! "Go forward..." Gu Beichen said calmly. Xiao Jing answered and continued on the way to the suburbs. What''s in case there? It''s easier to deal with than in the city. Gu Beichen''s eyes are still cold. There is no such coincidence in the world. They were injured in the south. They went to the hospital and were tracked out... There was a problem with the braking of the car... So everything was premeditated! In other words, some people have been waiting for a chance... And the injury to the south is his chance! The car had driven into the deserted suburbs. Xiao Jing was familiar with this area. Without Gu Beichen''s orders, he drove up a path leading to the mountains. There is a big slope over there. Although the speed can''t be reduced at all, it can give each other a chance. Unfortunately, the other party seemed to have expected their ideas... On the way to a big slope, several big stones were scattered. Xiao Jing''s pupils expanded in an instant. Just before he reacted, Gu Beichen''s cold voice had come, "jump!" It''s almost an instinct trained from childhood... Xiao Jing has untied his seat belt and opened the door with Gu Beichen at the high speed A loud bang came, followed by the sound of the vehicle overturning and hitting the ground, which reverberated deafly on the road from the suburbs to the mountains! It was already dark, and neon lights were flashing everywhere in Los Angeles. Jane Mo felt uneasy. Such uneasiness made her whole person fidgety. She put down her drawing pen, got up and went to the window. Looking at the dark sky outside and the position of her heart, it was like pressing a breath. That feeling made her whole person unable to breathe Looking back at the mobile phone placed on the desk, it didn''t ring from beginning to end "Is he delayed or something?" Jane Mo pursed her lips and murmured. Then she turned and walked over and planned to dial Gu Beichen. Chapter 248 The "buzzing" vibration came from the trouser pocket, shaking the skin, which was a little numb and astringent. Gu Beichen''s thin lips closed tightly. He tried to open his eyes, but... His whole body seemed to fall apart. He couldn''t open it. The mobile phone vibrated until it stopped. Gu Beichen didn''t move except for consciousness. Jane Mo frowned and felt unspeakable about Gu Beichen''s failure to answer the phone Originally, he asked her to have dinner, but he didn''t tell her when he was late. She called and no one answered. She should have been angry. However, she felt more and more uneasy now. Jane Mo endured the mood in her heart and dialed the phone again The vibration sounded again, and the pungent smell of gasoline filled the air, almost drowning people''s emotions. Gu Beichen''s eyelids moved slightly, and he gradually opened his eyes under the vibration of his mobile phone... His blurred vision fell on the car facing up to the sky in front of him. The vibration of the mobile phone stopped again. Gu Beichen flapped his eyes powerlessly and numbly, and his bones seemed to be reorganized... He wanted to control his consciousness, but there was no way. After a pause of five or six seconds, the mobile phone vibrated again Gu Beichen didn''t know where he came from at this moment. He felt a dark consciousness. He held his hands on the ground and tried to stand up secretly... He didn''t answer the phone, but staggered and dragged his pain to the other side of the road. The voice of "Di, di..." echoed strangely under the empty night sky, and the oil in the oil tank began to wind along the dripping beach into a small dark brown canal. "Ka... Yiyi... Ka..." The sound of wire fire came from time to time. Although Mars was weak, it was particularly dazzling and bright in the suburbs without any light. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes are slightly cold, his thin lips are tight, and he has come to Xiao Jing''s side In order to reduce the harm to him, Xiao Jing tried to lean the car against the roadside on his side when driving. When he jumped down, his body landed on the soft grass. And Xiao Jing, because his body began to cushion on the asphalt road, the impact force he had to bear was much higher than Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s eyebrows and eyes were already frowning together. He couldn''t care about the situation of seeing the car. He bent over and pinched Xiao Jing''s arm and began to drag back The body can''t make up its strength, but the car is constantly on fire, and the smell of gasoline in the air is becoming stronger and stronger The mobile phone kept shaking, and the other party seemed to stop if he didn''t answer. Gu Beichen looked calm and calm, but his heart was eager... Because of the constantly shaking phone, he seemed to burst out of strength in his body. With a low roar of "Oh", Gu Beichen half hugged and half dragged Xiao Jing, and then retreated more than ten meters A loud bang came, and in a moment, a huge black mushroom cloud rushed into the sky under the flood of fire... Suddenly, the air was full of pungent smell. Gu Beichen has retreated more than 20 meters with Xiao Jing, but even so, when an air wave rushed over, he was still washed down... With the trend, people rushed on Xiao Jing to prevent him from being hurt by the air wave. A burning feeling came from behind. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Under the light movement of his temples, he had already clenched his teeth and propped up The mobile phone had stopped ringing. He looked back at the burning smoke. The eagle''s eyes knew the bottom. Taking out his mobile phone, Gu Beichen looked at the broken mobile phone screen and frowned slightly. There was no way to slide... He looked at the seven missed calls above and inexplicably knew it was Jian mo. Thin lips had a smile. Gu Beichen looked at the missed call and smiled bitterly and said, "you saved me again... And I, helpless, made you sad again... Sorry, Mo''er!" Jane Mo pursed her lips. After making several calls, no one answered. She didn''t know whether Gu Beichen was in a meeting or something delayed him... Just that kind of uneasiness never dissipated. Jane Mo didn''t know whether to wait or not. She just looked at the dark sky without a bit of starlight. She pursed her lips. Because the previous mobile phone is no longer used, and now she doesn''t have the phone of Xiao Jing and Susan... She doesn''t know what to do? Jane Mo thought for a moment and endured the panic in her heart. She wanted to call Gu Beichen again. If no one answered... She would go to pick up the milk bag and go home. Thinking, Jian Mo said angrily, "Gu Beichen, don''t expect me to promise to eat with you again..." At the same time, she has dialed out the phone Looking at the phone ringing again, Gu Beichen''s heart suddenly soared Because the screen is so fragmented that there is no way to slide. Xiao Jing''s cell phone is useless... At this moment, he can only pray that anyone will call in. Press the button that can answer the phone. Gu Beichen endured the pain on his body, and then pretended to be meaningless and said: "Mo''er..." Jane Mo didn''t expect the phone to be connected. At this moment, she didn''t know how she was feeling... Angry and relieved. However, she didn''t understand why she was relieved. "Mr Gu..." Jian Mo gritted his teeth. "Are you going to invite me to supper?" Listening to Jian Mo''s deliberate tone, Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a thin smile, which was soothing and seemed to ease pain, "there was something unexpected here, so..." "OK, you''re busy!" Jane Mo said and wanted to hang up. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen shouted hurriedly, and then took a deep breath. He just said, "it''s inconvenient for me to call Yunze at this time. You can ask Yunze to call me back..." he said. He reported his mobile phone number to Jian Mo, regardless of whether she would doubt it. Jane Mo is suspicious... It''s not convenient to call, but it''s convenient to answer? "Gu Beichen..." Jane Mo shouted cautiously. Thinking of her uneasiness just now, she couldn''t help asking, "are you... What''s the matter?" About Li Xiaoyue four years ago, Chu Zixiao once told her that Gu Beichen was retaliated... No, he was chased and killed, right? Jane Mo is a little cranky, and can''t help feeling uneasy again Gu Beichen smiled. "The only thing I''m out of is... It''s not easy to ask you for dinner, but I''m dragged away! Don''t worry, it''s all right, it''s about the group..." he continued with a smile. "If you''re like this, can I understand that you''re worried about me?" Listening to Gu Beichen''s joking words, Jane Mo immediately sank her face... Then, angry that she was too worried and didn''t say anything, she hung up the phone. Looking at the phone number written on the paper, Jane Mo hummed, and then called Li Yunze "Hello, who?" Li Yunze''s soft and polite voice came with a trace of evil charm. "Hello, I''m Jian Mo......" Li Yunze was a little surprised. Before he could speak, he heard Jian Mo say, "that..." she thought, "Gu Beichen seems inconvenient to call you. Let me tell you and call him back." Li Yunze''s eyebrows frowned in an instant, as if he felt it. After he hurried to answer the voice, he didn''t care to say more to Jian Mo, and hurriedly hung up the phone Jane Mo looked at the phone that had been hung up. In her beautiful eyes, she was completely puzzled, "is something really happening?" Chapter 249 "Squeak -" The harsh sound of brakes echoed in the suburbs. It took Li Yunze less than half an hour from receiving a call from Jian Mo to standing in front of Gu Beichen. "I... OK!" Gu Beichen clenched his gum and said, "look... Xiao Jing!" Li Yunze, regardless of others, has gone to Xiao Jing and squatted down, and then carefully checked, "there is no big problem outside. Wait for the ambulance... I want to check him in detail." He said quickly, and then looked at Gu Beichen, "do you feel anything wrong?" "The speed is too fast. The chrome hit a stone when jumping off... However, the mobile phone blocked it and had a lot of cushioning." Gu Beichen said without much strength, "we have to deal with it here. We can''t expose it!" "I''ve informed the people under boss long to deal with it..." Li Yunze said, then looked at the open place and looked forward to the ambulance coming soon. At present, he can''t judge what happened to the two people at the first time. People can''t drag at will. He''s afraid there are hidden dangers in their bones. Fortunately, the ambulance came quickly. Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing were quickly taken away Just a moment after the ambulance left, several cars had stopped by. "Deal with it here first and see if there are any clues in the car..." Li Yunze said urgently, "I have to rush back to the hospital." "Chen Shao and Erjing are all right?" The first woman asked with a slight frown. Li Yunze shook his head. "I didn''t know until I went back..." he opened the door and got on the car. Looking at the passing car, the man behind the woman said coldly: "no matter who... This is the rhythm of waiting for death." "Nanshao and chenshao had accidents one after another, but the other party didn''t pursue them. It''s not simple..." the woman said coldly, then restrained her eyes and said, "deal with here first." From the accident to the scene, it took only more than an hour Looking as if nothing had happened, the woman turned coldly and got into the car. Brother Xiao just left. Something happened in the twinkling of an eye. Is the other Party aiming at Nanshao and chenshao, or brother Xiao? ¡­¡­ Jian Mo went straight home and drove to pick up the milk bag. Li Xiaoyue and Jian Jie were surprised to see her coming back so early. "Are you eating fast food?" Li Xiaoyue asked. Chien Chieh chuckled. "Oh, look at mommy''s face of resentment... It''s just that the unknown daddy has lost his chain." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and threw her bag discontentedly. "I don''t know what happened. Anyway, I''ll wait until now for an sorry call." She called several times before someone answered... At the thought of this, Jane Mo felt angry. How does it feel like she has to have dinner with Gu Beichen? Jane Jay frowned, and then shook his head in a groan. "This unknown father suck no more." then he went to collect the things. "Forget it, I''ll accompany you to dinner." "I''m going to the night market..." Jian Mo looked at Jian Jie with bright eyes. Jian Jie didn''t even look at Jian Mo, "no wonder you''re stupid... It''s because you eat too much junk food!" Originally, Li Xiaoyue listened to Jian Mo go to the night market and thought she would be with her... But as soon as she heard Jian Jie speak, she immediately swallowed her words. Play Sudoku with Jay less at night. She''s almost abused and crying... She doesn''t want to be called stupid. Jane Mo grinned at Jane Jie. Who can tell her... Why have a son who hates himself all day? Jane moxin is so powerful here that Huakang hospital is also dignified. Because the speed is too fast, Xiao Jing has to bear a lot more in order to make Gu Beichen suffer as little impact as possible... So that two ribs are cracked. Gu Beichen was all right except for many bruises on his body and a slight concussion caused by the chrome pressure of the stone... But at that time, in order to protect Xiao Jing, he was attacked by excitement behind his back, burning a large area of skin red. Because it was not a major operation, Li Yunze didn''t operate the knife himself, but his face was a little dignified after Gu Beichen''s examination. "Who do you think did it?" Li Yunze asked. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly and sucked, and immediately emitted two dark cold lights, "it''s more involved. Now go and guess that it will only pull the direction away..." Li Yunze heaved a sigh and didn''t tangle with the problem any more. "Why did Jane Mo call me?" Speaking of Jian Mo, Gu Beichen''s face was covered with dark clouds... He took a little thought and finally made an appointment for dinner. The man behind him made him angry than he hurt him! After talking about the situation, Li Yunze couldn''t help laughing, "such a childish means of chasing love is really not suitable for you, a man running four." "What run four?" Gu Beichen was dissatisfied and said with a cold face, "I''m only in my early thirties..." Originally, there was an age difference between Jian Mo and him. What is Ben Si? Li Yunze is Ben Si! At least... He has a son, but Yunze doesn''t even have a woman! At the thought of Jian Mo and Jian Jie, the lines on Gu Beichen''s cold face softened. "Tut Tut, look at the way you play cheap... I really can''t stand it." Li Yunze sniffed, rolled his eyes, and then said, "however, you have this thing today, you can''t have dinner with Jane Mo, so you don''t want to explain?" He wants happiness, but he must lose his brother Gu Beichen smiled at himself, shook his head and said, "I don''t want her to worry, though..." the self mockery at the corner of his mouth became more and more strong, showing self-confidence, "... She may not worry." Li Yunze sighed softly, "it''s up to you... Fortunately, your face is all right. It doesn''t matter if you look back." The door of the ward was pushed open just after the voice fell "Li Shao," said the nurse, "Mr. Xiao''s operation has been completed... Everything is going well." Li Yunze nodded, but he didn''t worry... Xiao Jing''s injury sounded a little scary, but it wasn''t really a big problem. "How''s it going south?" Gu Beichen asked after the nurse left. Li Yunze shook his head. "It''s stable for the time being. We won''t know the situation until tomorrow morning..." Gu Beichen nodded after listening, then got up and wanted to get out of the hospital bed. "What are you doing?" Li Yunze frowned at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen went to the bathroom in the ward and said, "bring me a set of clean clothes. I''m going out." "Find Jane Mo?" Li Yunze said softly, but Gu Beichen closed the door of the bathroom. Jane Mo has called him so many times. I''m afraid it''s not to eat or not... Sometimes people have a strong sixth sense! He doesn''t want Jian Mo to worry... He just didn''t know about Xiao Jing. Now he can''t help hearing that Xiao Jing is all right. Li Yunze is a doctor. He knows that Gu Beichen had better not move at this time... However, as Gu Beichen''s brother, he knows that he can''t persuade him at all, so he can only find him clothes. "If you feel uncomfortable, remember to call me at the first time," Li Yunze said. First, he gave Gu Beichen the mobile phone he turned out from the office. "You use this first." "Yes!" Gu Beichen took it and took out the card and changed it into his mobile phone. Li Yunze was worried and continued to explain, "you can''t exercise violently... Especially, you can''t do it!" He said with ambiguous eyes, "too excited, it''s easy for blood to rush into the brain. You''re still in the observation period of concussion." Gu Beichen smiled helplessly, "I think... I have to have a chance?" Chapter 250 Li Yunze suddenly felt a little sour... They all said that love is a perceptual emotion in women''s world, and men are too rational to fall. But obviously... Wrong! Men may not be easy to fall, but once they fall... It''s the humbleness of falling to the ground. And such a humble, for a man who is high in the sky... Humble to the dust! "I''ll take you there..." Li Yunze said faintly. Gu Beichen is in a dangerous condition at the moment. Although the people on boss Long''s side are secretly protecting him, he can take care of him just in case. Gu Beichen didn''t refuse. At the moment, his body doesn''t allow him to drive After what happened that year, he didn''t care about life. However, now he wants to take care of Mo''er and watch Xiao Jie grow up... On the contrary, his life becomes more important. The car was driving under the streamer of neon lights at night. Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone... I wanted to call her first, but I finally thought about it. Eagle eyes turned to the outside of the car again... Gu Beichen''s thoughts became far-reaching. At that time, in the car, Da Mo''er''s mobile phone was always unable to connect... I thought it was her problem, but now I think someone might have installed a signal transfer device in his car to receive all the signals sent from the car to a terminal that could not be connected. In the car, due to the problem of jammer, the phone outside can''t get in... In this way, he may disappear because he has no way to ask for help. So when he jumped out of the car and Mo''er called him, he could receive Thinking of this, Gu Beichen''s sight couldn''t help getting deeper again. He can''t imagine if he could wake up if it wasn''t for Mo''er''s phone call... I don''t know if he had the strength to take Xiao Jing away if it wasn''t for her persistent calling Even if it was only more than 20 meters away, but... He was only burned on his back by a powerful heat flow, but there was no particularly serious injury. God... Did he send Mo''er to be his patron saint? Gu Beichen''s lips could not help but raise a thin smile, which showed the willingness of the enemy... What''s more, he loved the little woman. Six years ago, in order to force him not to successfully accept the emperor group, the second uncle framed him and lured him If he is convicted of luring him, even if he has many ways to deal with it, he will at least stay in prison for a period of time... Then the whole emperor''s heaven will change. The second uncle never thought... That night she would leave before he asked someone to catch him. Gu Beichen felt deeply guilty at the bottom of his eyes. He felt a pain for a while when he thought that Jian Heng had threatened her with this thing before Should we find a suitable opportunity to tell him that the person that night... Was him? She has always been only him... And he is glad that she has never been the only one! Li Yunze stopped at the red light at the intersection and looked slightly at Gu Beichen... Seeing his thin lips with a soothing smile, he couldn''t help laughing. Some pursuits are always good Because she was disliked by Jian Jie, Jian Mo didn''t go to the night market to eat at last. In addition, she seemed to be hiding things and had no appetite. She simply went home and ate a quick-frozen wonton. It''s late at night, and Jianjie has gone to bed Jian Mo sat at the table and looked at the rotating frame diagram on the computer screen. She breathed a sigh of relief... However, the breath choking in her heart, no matter how she eased it, it didn''t work! "Er..." Jane Mo growled, angrily simply put down the drawing pen, stood up, and then opened the light shield. Unfortunately, tonight is cloudy and there are no stars. Jane Mo, who originally wanted to relieve her mood, looked at the gloomy ink space and felt even worse. "Yiyi!" At the right time, there was the sound of the door lock being opened Jane Mo took back her eyes and looked up at the door. When she frowned slightly, she saw Gu Beichen come in For he knows the password, Jane Mo dares to guarantee... It must have been cheated from the milk bag! Gu Beichen stood in the porch, and Jian Mo stood in a small pool in the house next to aquatic plants. Neither of them moved or spoke... Just looked at it. Indescribable feeling... Jane Mo was in an impetuous mood all night. At the moment she saw Gu Beichen, she suddenly calmed down. "Tonight..." Gu Beichen wanted to find a reason, but he just opened his mouth and found that he didn''t want to cheat her, but he didn''t want her to know the real reason. "You don''t need to explain to me..." Jane Mo smiled, a little fake. "After all, I''m not your one... Just breaking an appointment, and sometimes I have to." She said easily and happily, but no one understood what she was thinking at the moment. One night''s uneasiness was calm when Gu Beichen appeared. She worried about him... Even without the uncontrollable feelings she had at the beginning, but she was really worried about him... Afraid of his accident! It''s nice to see him standing in front of you... Unharmed! I don''t know whether Jian Mo''s vision is too blurred at the moment, or because the smile he holds is too penetrating into people''s hearts... Gu Beichen strides over and quietly holds Jian Mo in his arms regardless of his own secret injury. Jane Mo subconsciously wanted to push away, and her low voice came from her head, "don''t move... Just let me hold it for a while, okay?" With a hint of begging, Jian Mo couldn''t bear to push Gu Beichen away. Even, his body controlled his consciousness and slowly hugged Gu Beichen''s waist A stabbing pain and a needle pierced Gu Beichen''s nerve, and instantly... His forehead overflowed with a fine cold sweat. Jane Mo didn''t know Gu Beichen was hurt, even... His back waist was burned by the impact of the heat wave. She just hugged him when he said such begging words with instinctive reaction. After a period of tingling, Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a smile... It''s so painful! Even more painful She is willing to take the initiative to hold him. Is this... An extra harvest and happiness today? "Mo''er, it''s nice to have you around now..." Gu Beichen said shallowly. At this moment, Jian Mo''s heart also seemed to have something to melt away, an unspeakable feeling... Different from the throbbing four years ago, it was a kind of warmth. "Gu Beichen, you are lowering your posture at the moment, so you won''t let me investigate?" Jane Mo asked with a smile. Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "who just said... No need to explain? That doesn''t mean you don''t pursue..." "..." Jian Mo was stunned and suddenly remembered what he had just said. He couldn''t help being angry and wanted to push Gu Beichen away. Gu Beichen was pushed by Jian Mo because of his injury. The instinctive reaction of his muscles retreated, but he was pushed away by her. However, Gu Beichen greedily took such a hug and let Jian Mo go where he was willing... He took his long arm and Jian Mo had been held by him for half a circle. Jane Mo''s body tilted back and inertia, because some of the sudden movements were frightened... But under such a shock, with the uncontrollable heartbeat jumping up, even her cheeks were slightly stained with crimson. Looking at her charming appearance, Gu Beichen couldn''t help it any longer. At the moment... He wanted to taste her beauty, even if it was just a skimmer. Think like this Gu Beichen has bent down Chapter 251 Jane Mo kept fanning her eyelashes and looked at Gu Beichen''s handsome face getting closer and closer. She wanted to push it away, but... I don''t know if she was stunned. She was still looking forward to it? Breathing, some shortness and heaviness. Jane Mo got nervous uncontrollably, and even her heart beat faster God, is she shaking m? Gu Beichen broke his appointment tonight. Is she still eager for him? No... she must have been awakened by her silent body''s familiarity with the man. Well, it''s just the body! Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, and the mood in his eyes kept changing, such as the sea''s deep eyes overflowing from deep to shallow, hot bath Just when the thin lips and the delicate lips moving slightly are about to fit together, and the heat in each other''s bodies is gradually burning "Excuse me, do you need to avoid me?" Suddenly, a childish voice scattered all the ambiguous breath in the air! Jane Mo suddenly dilated her pupils, instinctively pushed Gu Beichen away, and then stood up straight in embarrassment. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo in panic and looked at Jian Jie standing at the entrance of the corridor from the bedroom to the living room... Jun''s face couldn''t help sinking! His son is not only a pit mother, but also a pit father, isn''t he? Jian Jie didn''t seem to see Jian Mo''s embarrassment or Gu Beichen''s dissatisfaction. He just said calmly, "I just want to come out and have a drink... But I''ve been standing here for a long time. Even if you don''t find it, there will be some scenes that are not suitable for children." Jian Jie seemed very distressed. He was embarrassed to disturb the "flirting and flirting" of the two people. Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. "Didn''t I have a water cup on the bedside table?" "Forget..." Jian Jie said calmly, calmly poured water in front of Jian Mo and Gu Beichen, and then slowly sat on the sofa and drank, as if he didn''t feel the strange atmosphere at the moment. Hum, I gave you a chance, but you lost your appointment Jian Jie Yu Guang glanced at Beichen and was secretly dissatisfied... When he broke the appointment, he wanted to use the soft and overbearing mode to make the mommy with some funny brain circuits indulge in you? Don''t even think about it! Mommy gave birth to him without telling the unknown daddy, and... They also agreed to divorce. No matter how many misunderstandings, but now if you want mommy to accept it again, the unknown daddy must make Mommy willing. Otherwise... He won''t agree! Jian Jie''s careful thinking, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo don''t know... The two people are staring at Jian Jie''s leisurely life there one by one. Don''t mention it in their hearts. Gu Beichen is naturally thick skinned and can pretend. He walked over with an indifferent face. "Don''t drink so much water at night..." he said softly and spoiled. He had taken the water cup in Jian Jie''s hand and put it down, "go to bed." Without giving Jian Jie a chance to speak, Gu Beichen has picked him up Jian Jie didn''t like being tired of people when he was young, so he subconsciously wanted to rub it away... However, Gu Beichen had the strength as a father, and he didn''t move in his first reaction. And the second reaction Jian Jie pursed his small lips and said that he liked such a one arm hug... To show his self contempt! But this man is daddy... Daddy just sent him to school in the morning. He''s holding him now! Jian Jie''s posture of trying to break away gradually softened. Heitong looked at Gu Beichen, full of some warmth from the word "father"... It was the greed hidden in his heart for a long time under the temptation of his father. Gu Beichen walked to the bedroom with Jian Jie under Jian Mo''s stunned eyes It''s messy enough tonight. My son has to find trouble for her! A person sat in front of the table, looking at the rotating frame diagram on the computer screen. Jane Mo supported the desktop with her arms and her cheeks on the back of her hands, and couldn''t help but turn her mouth Jian Mo felt the slight reaction that Jian Jie had just made. She clearly wanted to break free, but she finally compromised... Thinking of this, she couldn''t help drooping her shoulders. The woman was pregnant in October, but she couldn''t compare with her father''s mountain image in the end! Jian Mo is depressed outside alone. Gu Beichen has covered Jian Jie with a quilt "What happened tonight was an accident. I''m sorry!" Gu Beichen put his arms on both sides of Jian Jie''s body. The eagle''s eyes looked deeply at his son who fanned his eyes and opened his mouth. Jian Jie is not surprised that Gu Beichen will see through his mind. After all... Mommy''s IQ is not enough, so Daddy has to make it up! "I don''t comment!" Jian Jie said in a childish voice, "after all, during the inspection period, it is based on mommy''s criteria... Good night!" Gu Beichen smiled, "good night!" His eyes were deep, "thank you for accompanying her for me in the days and nights of my absence for more than four years..." He leaned over, kissed Jianjie on the forehead, and then looked at Jianjie with a smile... Before he got up and left. All the actions are natural, as if they have been done thousands of times, and the interaction with Jianjie''s son is the same since childhood The corner of Jian Jie''s mouth couldn''t help smiling... So, what''s the feeling of daddy''s good night kiss? splendid! The door of the bedroom closed gently. Gu Beichen felt warm at this moment "I''m not staying here tonight." Gu Beichen opened his mouth gently and looked at Jian Mo with guilt in the depths of his eyes. Jane Mo sneered, "Mr. Gu, don''t talk as if I begged you to live here, okay?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised, "no, it''s my temporary tenant who has something to do. I always have to say no to the owner?" "..." Jian Mo was speechless when Gu Beichen gave in to her. "It''s late, go to bed early..." Gu Beichen looked at the design drawings spread out on the table and frowned slightly. "Isn''t there still some time?" He was a little dissatisfied, "as soon as you have pressure, your stomach cramps. You don''t know?" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she couldn''t help but curl her mouth and mutter Gu Beichen looked at her dissatisfied look and couldn''t help laughing, "for a person who used to draw the design drawing of the whole one floor building one day and one night, such a long period of architectural drawing still needs to work overtime. Then I really want to doubt how you graduated from UCL." "Who said I had to work overtime?" Jane Mo is angry. What she can''t stand most is being questioned about her ability in design. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but raised his eyebrows and glanced at the table. Jane Mo closed her notebook with a "pop" sound. "I''m going to sleep, but I was disturbed by someone''s accident..." she proudly raised her chin slightly, and then walked towards the bedroom, "remember to close the door and don''t send it!" Looking at Jian Mo returning to the bedroom, Gu Beichen gradually restrained the smile on his face, but for a moment, his back was already wet. Just, but I don''t know whether it''s because of cold sweat or something Gu Beichen went directly to the underground parking lot. Li Yunze didn''t go. Because he was worried about his body, he waited in the parking lot first. Looking at Gu Beichen''s pale face, Li Yunze immediately frowned. Without saying a word, he started the car and drove quickly to the hospital Chapter 252 After arriving at the hospital, Li Yunze directly took Gu Beichen to the examination room, "take it off and have a look..." Gu Beichen''s face was already very bad. When he took Jian Jie to the bedroom, he was almost unable to hold on... So he didn''t dare to stay more and let Jian Mo find something different, so he deliberately stimulated her to have a rest. All the way, even though Li Yunze has been driving carefully, but because of friction... Gu Beichen is just as uncomfortable. "You die!" When Li Yunze saw that under the large dark red skin behind Gu Beichen, fine blood particles and sweat penetrated out, he couldn''t help scolding angrily, "let you stay still tonight, you have to go..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were getting deeper and deeper. He didn''t speak, but his thin lips closed tightly into a straight line. Li Yunze cools his face while carefully treating Gu Beichen''s wound... When he sees that his waist is more serious, he sinks his face. "Yunze, you don''t know..." Gu Beichen''s voice was slightly far-reaching and enchanted. "At that time, I saw that she was worried in her eyes... Although she tried to hide it, she was obviously relieved when she saw me." As soon as Li Yunze heard it, his heart was sour Even though Beichen had never been so ecstatic about a thing before, he was already happy and angry under the experience of the emperor, but... Now he is as happy as a child. "At that time, she took the initiative to hold me." Gu Beichen''s tone was lighthearted for a few minutes, although it didn''t match his pale face at the moment. "I just thought. I like it if it hurts more!" "Gu Beichen, you''re fucking sick!" Li Yunze couldn''t stand hissing. "Well, I''m sick..." Gu Beichen''s smile on his thin lips instantly reached the bottom of his eyes, but his voice was low with a touch of melancholy, "only she... My disease can be cured!" Li Yunze''s actions stopped. He didn''t know what mood he was looking at Gu Beichen. The complex emotions at that moment made him suddenly feel... That he can live up to his life when he touches love. However, in order to touch this love, how much bitterness and bitterness do they have to bear. Can''t bear to blame Gu Beichen for not cherishing himself. Li Yunze treated his wound quickly and persuaded him, "you''d better not move around these two days. If you go on like this, you''ll get an internal injury sooner or later." "I''m afraid not..." Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face showed a thin smile. "I''ll take Mo''er back to grandma for dinner at the weekend. And..." he paused, and a smile filled Junyi''s eyebrows and eyes. "My son will be four years old soon!" He missed his birthday for three years and the moment when he was born, and every subsequent growth... As a father, he didn''t want to be absent. "Ha ha..." Li Yunze directly laughed sarcastically, "you like to be a father. You really quickly entered the role." When he said this, he didn''t respond to Gu Beichen''s age. Gu Beichen is lying on the hospital bed. Because his back is burned by the hot air flow and the tossing at night, he can only hang his back to the sky He looked at Li Yunze with a proud smile. "Yunze, that''s my son!" "It''s you when you finish Jian mo..." Li Yunze said subconsciously. Suddenly, he widened his eyes. "What are you talking about, your son?" "Well..." Gu Beichen has pride in his eyes. "Jian Mo gave birth to my child!" "...." Li Yunze had no way to think, so he could only look at Gu Beichen directly. Should the plot turn around like this? Li Yunze asked uncertainly, "are you sure?" Then he took out the essence of the doctor, "do you need DNA? I can make an appointment for you!" "Even though my eyes were soft, my son said," even if my eyes were cold. " The fact is that the joy of accidentally discovering that the child is his own... Can''t be understood by others. Looking at Gu Beichen''s pale face with a happy smile, Li Yunze breathed a sigh of relief from his heart... Because he saw Beichen''s long lost humanity now. Since that happened, in fact... Beichen''s body has been impersonal. The next day, it drizzled in Los Angeles after a gloomy night. What happened in the suburbs was like a dream. There was no news from the media or anything. Lin Nan stabilized after surgery, but it may take a few days to wake up... Because of his special status, Gu Beichen discussed with Li Yunze after his condition was stable. This matter must be known to the Lin family. It''s inconvenient for them to intervene too much in military affairs! Xiao Jing woke up early the next morning... Just because of the cracked ribs, it was inevitable to lie in the hospital bed for a few days. As for what Lin Chen didn''t do to the South last night, it doesn''t matter who he didn''t do to the North The surface of Los Angeles looks the same. The hot news these two days is still the emperor''s new community, and the characters... Naturally, Gu Beichen. In addition to the constant popularity, recently, the lawsuit between Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao has also attracted much attention... People are always guessing who will win and lose this complicated lawsuit in the end. Li Xiaoyue, Jian Mo and Jian Jie had dinner together in a restaurant near runzeyuan, while talking about the lawsuit between Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao yesterday "Alas, elder martial brother Mo''s lawsuit is simply shocking. It''s really incomparable." Li Xiaoyue is still a face of worship, "however, Chu Zixiao is also powerful this time. Several views just refuted all the views of the prosecution in the first court session." Jian Jie fans his eyes curiously and listens to Li Xiaoyue''s words. Now he is very curious about the world... Like ordinary boys, he likes some mechanical and brain games and things. Jane Mo is lack of interest. Her major is different. "By the way, Han Zhenzhen went to the Chu Tang law office." Li Xiaoyue suddenly said, "Lin fan has also passed." Jane Mo frowned slightly, and then said casually, "it''s good, near water." "I think you are not rare, so you are free..." Li Xiaoyue laughed and scolded. Jane Mo glanced. "What should I do? Can I have vinegar?" As soon as he heard "jealous", Jane Jie looked at Jane Mo, "Mommy, who are you jealous of? Is it a man other than the unknown daddy?" Jane Mo can''t stand it. She looks directly at Jane Jie''s helpless face... She is not stared at by her husband all day, but watched by her son. Her heart is broken! Chapter 253 Looking at Jian Mo being stared at by Jian Jie every day, Li Xiaoyue suddenly said with her cheek: "say... Jie, don''t look at you like this. Don''t have a purpose?" Jane Mo rolled her eyes. "You asked him!" She can''t guess the mind of the milk bag... It''s for Jun Li, but he''s making out with Jun Li, but it''s always like something''s missing. Jian Mo sometimes doubts whether the milk bag is born strange. She directly brings her own memory in the womb and knows who his father is! "Because the unknown daddy is in the investigation period, during this period, I will help Mommy study the unknown daddy and look at Mommy..." Jane Jie said solemnly, "don''t be partial to each other." "Unknown daddy?" Li Xiaoyue sat up straight, looked at Jian Jie, and then looked at Jian Mo, "who is it?" Jane Mo helped her forehead. "Who else can there be?" "..." Li Xiaoyue was stunned. "Do they know each other?" Jane Mo nodded helplessly, and then said what happened the night before last After hearing this, Li Xiaoyue couldn''t help laughing with no image, "girl, why do I think... It''s hard for you to go this way?" Even if there is a pit mother''s son, this son still looks like watching a good play Smiling, Li Xiaoyue couldn''t help giving Jian Jie a thumbs up. In fact... She is quite optimistic about Gu Beichen. After all, Jian Jie is his son. If the two people can come together, it will be perfect. However, I hope Gu Beichen and Mo Mo are not because of the child... Otherwise, she would rather let Mo Mo take the child alone. Just when Li Xiaoyue was calm, a text message came from Jian Mo''s mobile phone. President Gu: don''t be too busy to forget to eat. I have something to do at night. If I don''t go back, say sorry for me and Xiaojie. Jane Mo looked at the message and felt a little complicated... It seemed warm and repulsive, which made her mood dignified. After thinking about it, she replied in the end: Thank you for your concern! Four words, showing the politeness of alienation, but... In Gu Beichen''s eyes, he seemed to see the entanglement of Jian mo. Gu Beichen received his mobile phone, and then said to Xiao Jing, "you''re good to recover. I''ll deal with the rest..." "Chen Shao, can it be made by the second master?" Xiao Jing asked suspiciously. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly deep, and his thin lips gently said slowly, "yes or no, not now!" There is a mystery in what he said, but Xiao Jing still understood If so, the direction of Chen Shao can only make the other party feel that their direction is wrong! A contest after four years away No, not four years! Xiao Jing''s eyes are a little heavy. What should be solved this time is what happened four years ago... And that unknown thing! For two days in a row, Gu Beichen didn''t return to the Runze garden, but the flowers sent to Xiangyu every day won''t stop... Even, as if he sensed the hope of the evening, morning tea and afternoon tea will arrive! The card is not made by machine, but written by Gu Beichen every time There are family habits, encouragement, and a "Miss" that must come every day! Jian Mo looked at the picture on the text message. It was Gu Beichen''s exaggerated desk and piles of documents ¡ª¡ªBusy always want to steal time to miss you, and now you... Do you also think of me for a moment? The corners of Jane Mo''s mouth laughed. It was so inexplicable! When the mobile phone rang, Jian Mo looked at the incoming call as "President Gu", picked it up and put it in his ear, "huh?" "Remember going to see grandma at the weekend?" Gu Beichen''s low and magnetic voice sounded softly. Jane Mo made a "um" sound. Gu Beichen smiled. "When you have time, I''ll call grandma." Jane Mo thought for a while, and at the weekend, she had to answer Su Jun''s appointment. She couldn''t help saying, "I have to make sure the time to know." "And a date?" Gu Beichen is light. Jane Mo smiled, "I''m hot now..." "Suddenly I felt in danger!" Gu Beichen seemed a little distressed, "it seems that I can only work harder." Jian Mo''s smile on the corner of her mouth raised unconsciously, and then subconsciously said: "Junli''s grandfather asked me to go home for dinner... For more than four years, I can''t refuse to be taken care of in the end." Gu Beichen''s thin lips also gradually smiled, "can I take this as you''re explaining it to me?" "...." Jane Mo just wanted to refute, but when she thought about it, her words really seemed to be explaining to Gu Beichen. Suddenly, she was speechless and choked. Gu Beichen looked deeply, got up and went to the French window, looked at the rare and better weather outside, "it''s right to go... It''s a pity that I''m not with you, and I should also be grateful." Thank Su Jun for not grabbing Mo''er''s heart for more than four years... Gu Beichen thought so, and Ying''s eyes showed a deep understanding. Jane Mo felt that Gu Beichen''s words were too soft, which made her not used to it. However, she liked them very much. "Go to see grandma and take Xiao Jie?" Gu Beichen changed the subject and didn''t want Jane to be too embarrassed. Jane Mo was silent. After all, the relationship between the two people is somewhat complicated. She doesn''t want Jane Jie to participate too much, "can you leave it alone?" "Good!" Gu Beichen answered with a smile. Jane Mo was surprised. "Why don''t you ask?" Gu Beichen''s eyes became deep, "Mo''er... Caring about a person starts with respecting her." "Shua" for a moment, Jane Mo''s heart was like blooming That feeling is not jewelry or money can fill it, because Gu Beichen''s "respect begins" instantly stirred all her thoughts. Jane Mo smiled, "thank you!" Gu Beichen also smiled, "I just hope you are happy..." Let you get used to my existence with the simplest words and deeds... Without any habits. Jian Mo hangs up the phone. After finalizing the time of Friday with Su Jun, Gu Beichen decides to take Jian Mo to grandma Gu''s house on Saturday. The weekend seemed to be filled with meals. Whether going to Su''s house or grandma Gu''s house, the two old people were extremely enthusiastic about Jian Mo, just as one didn''t know that the other party had Gu Beichen''s child and the other didn''t know that Gu Beichen had divorced. Jane Mo helped aunt LAN to clean up the dishes and chopsticks. Gu Beichen helped grandma Gu to take a walk in the villa garden "Have you all figured it out?" Grandma Gu asked with a smile, "is it just her?" Gu Beichen smiled, "well, just her..." Grandma Gu saw Gu Beichen''s smile spreading around her mouth and sighed, "Xiaochen, have you ever thought about... The problems you will face next when you are with her?" No one thought of it before. Later, I learned that Jian Mo was Jian Zhanfeng''s daughter I don''t know whether it''s fate or sin? Grandma Gu''s face was a little heavy, and there were solemn wrinkles on her face after years. "I''m glad you want a real beginning, but... Are you sure you and Jane Mo come to the end?" Chapter 254 Gu Beichen stopped, the eagle''s eyes fell in front, and his sight was slightly cold After a while, I saw his thin lips gently and slowly say, "grandma, I love Jane foam..." his voice was very deep, as if squeezed out of his heart, "so I will solve these problems. For her... I won''t run away again!" Grandma Gu looked at this excellent grandson, who was also her only grandson He is a sunny boy who is full of enthusiasm for everything... But when he meets something like that, he becomes so deep now. If Jane Mo can take him out of that shadow, she will be very happy... However, she is Jane Zhanfeng''s daughter? Alas Grandma Gu sighed secretly. Maybe all this is doomed? ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao looked at the files related to the case. Finally, his eyes fell on a piece of paper pulled out... He saw the words "Yuanda construction company''s internal funds were broken, and the direction of the design drawings changed, resulting in high debt". Chu Zixiao slowly lay back on the chair, and her eyes gradually became deep He hasn''t stopped investigating the root cause of Yuanda''s accident in recent years... The most fundamental problem is that he is separated from Mo mo. Before, he doubted his father and Chu''s group, and later, he also doubted Beichen and Emperor''s group... Because both of them participated in Yujing lake. However, it seems that there is always a deviation in the direction Chu Zixiao''s eyes fell on that piece of paper. This is the tone Tang Yu got inadvertently last time... His client unexpectedly knew about Yuanda that year, which surprised him. Chu Zixiao pursed his lips slightly. If it wasn''t for the fact that the case didn''t come to an end, how could he resist it? "Dong Dong!" At the right time, a knock on the door interrupted Chu Zixiao''s thoughts. He got up, put the paper away and put it in the drawer, "come in!" Han Zhenzhen came in. "Chu Bian, the information you want is ready." With that, she put the document in front of Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao opened it and opened it. "It''s late. You''re off work!" "Chu Bian hasn''t left yet?" Han Zhenzhen asked. Chu Zixiao said without raising his head: "go first, I''ll finish reading the file..." Han Zhenzhen''s lips moved back and forth, and he tried to stop talking. Finally, he said, "OK, I''ll go first." Chu Zixiao just nodded and continued to look at the file Han Zhenzhen was disappointed on her face, but finally left... Just, at the moment of closing the office door, she couldn''t help looking at Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao didn''t notice Han Zhenzhen''s last look. He just flipped the file. However, his mind was not on the case at all, and he was thinking about Yuanda''s things. As time went by, when the sky darkened, the whole law firm was quiet only when Chu Zixiao turned over the file. The door was suddenly knocked and pushed open. Chu Zixiao frowned slightly and looked up... Tang Yu came in with a folder in his hand. "Xiao, look!" Tang Yu''s face was bad and his voice was very hurried. Chu Zixiao still frowned. After receiving the folder sent by Tang Yu, he opened it... His sight dropped slightly. When he saw that it was about "Yuanda", he suddenly looked cold. After reading it quickly, Chu Zixiao''s face looked up a little bad, "how could it be such a result?" Tang Yu''s face was also dignified. "The question now is whether what he said is true... If it is true, I''m afraid it involves a little wide!" Chu Zixiao immediately felt powerless, and the folder in his hand also fell loosely on the desk His breathing gradually began to rush, and he seemed unable to accept the result. "Impossible..." Chu Zixiao said subconsciously, "how could Chu compete with a small construction company like Yuanda? How could it be?" Tang Yu''s face was dignified, but Xu was calm because he had nothing to do with himself. "I think it''s a little strange." He frowned deeply. "Xiao, don''t you think it''s too strange?" Chu Zixiao looked at Tang Yu weakly "The case we defended clearly has nothing to do with this, but because of the relationship between the parties, we inadvertently know Yuanda''s fishiness in those years..." Tang Yu calmly analyzed, "this is nothing, but the next receipt seems to drive Yuanda''s things to reveal clues." "You mean... Someone did it on purpose?" Chu Zixiao''s eyebrows and eyes were slightly cold, "or someone deliberately wanted to guide me to Chu''s family or father?" Tang Yu shook his head, "I''m not sure about this, but it''s too strange..." His doubts are not unreasonable. After all, Yuanda''s case was six years ago... Isn''t it too strange to be involved in another case now? Most importantly, it is their defender "Who wants to pull the direction off?" Chu Zixiao whispered and dropped his eyes on the folder. Gradually... His sight became deep and bottomless. On the way back, Jane Mo thought Gu Beichen was a little silent, but she didn''t ask. "Can you go somewhere with me?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo while waiting for the traffic light. Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously "The day after tomorrow is Xiaojie''s birthday. I don''t know what he likes..." Gu Beichen said with some guilt. Jane Mo''s eyes gradually turned into a smile, "you know?" "Hmm..." Gu Beichen smiled and steered the car forward at the green light. The sound came in a timely and quiet way. "Before, I always wondered if I should let you go if you were Su Junli in your heart." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, "I don''t dare to check your whereabouts clearly, because I''m afraid I''ll tie you back out of control..." Jane Mo glanced at Gu Beichen. He seemed to be a little emotional today... The most important thing is, why did he say that he felt different from her four years ago? With doubt, Jane Mo didn''t speak, but listened quietly. "Originally, there are some things I want to... In the past, there is no need to say!" Gu Beichen''s evil spirit took a deep look, and the corners of his mouth were completely smiling, "because I don''t think I''m just a gift from the past for you now." Their two-year marriage ended because he didn''t want his love for Mo''er mixed with the interests of the beginning Now, because of grandma''s words, he is afraid... If he speaks later, will it be too late again! Gu Beichen suddenly turned his car into a tree lined path. Because there were no street lights, their eyes suddenly darkened Jane Mo''s heartbeat suddenly began to accelerate. This feeling is inexplicable and instinctive. "Mo''er, I want to divorce you two years ago..." Gu Beichen deeply coagulated Jian Mo, "not because of Shen Chu, just because of you!" He looked at Jian Mo with wide eyes and continued to say slowly, "I just want to end the beginning of our interests... I just want to propose to you again!" Chapter 255 Jane Mo didn''t expect Gu Beichen to say this. Even, she never thought that the truth was like this... Listening to him seriously, she was stupid. "You..." Jane Mo said with some difficulty, "what are you talking about? Why can''t I understand..." she frowned and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s cold face was slightly frozen, and his eagle eyes were as deep as the sea. "Divorce," he said seriously word by word, "I just want to start without interest! The so-called ''she is the only person I want to love in my life''..." Jian Mo''s heart has gradually raised to her throat, as if resisting, and as if expecting Gu Beichen to take it down. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight deeper and deeper. He gently opened his thin lips and slowly said his last words: "... It''s you!" With a bang, it seemed that something exploded in Jian Mo''s brain. She couldn''t think at all. She looked at Gu Beichen How is this... Possible? "Shouldn''t it be Shen Chu?" Jane Mo asked subconsciously. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "no, it''s you!" His voice was firm. Jane Mo was at a loss, because the result was so different from what she thought If so, didn''t she think it was ridiculous? "That night, I didn''t have a ''break up dinner''," Gu Beichen said with a self deprecating smile. "I''m going to propose to you again..." his sideburns moved gently, and his eyes were as deep as Gu Tan. "I''m all ready and waiting for you... But I saw the report of you having dinner with Su Junli!" Jane Mo listened, breathing slightly, "wait, my brain is a little confused..." As she said, she couldn''t help thinking back to that day She and her mother had just left the meal, so Gu thought that all her thoughts had just ended. In fact, if there was no mother''s death, according to her stubborn character... Even if she pretended to be hard, she would eat that meal. But... Everything came together. After sorting out the day''s affairs, Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen, "why do you want to tell me this today?" When she asked for the exit, she felt uncontrollably nervous. Gu Beichen smiled and looked at Jian mo. Even though she was tangled, she clearly saw the problem. He sighed secretly... How can he not like such a little woman? "Because I''m afraid I can''t control some things..." Gu Beichen said calmly. "I''m not saying this today to make you put down your guard against me... Mo''er, how should I chase you or how to chase you. You can''t accept me at last..." he said, suddenly pausing. Jane Mo didn''t speak, just waiting for Gu Beichen to continue... But her heart had already mentioned it to her throat. Gu Beichen suddenly raised his thin lips in an arc, and a pair of dark pupils seemed to devour everything around him, "there is no such result... I started, I must succeed!" The overbearing words showed the domineering spirit of looking down. Although Gu Beichen''s voice was very calm, it showed that he was bound to win. Jane Mo smiled, smiling casually but from her heart, "Mr. Gu, you are really confident!" Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "otherwise?" He said softly, "Mo''er..." his voice suddenly became deep and charming, "I just want to be with you!" The smile from the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth was frozen in the bottom of her eyes. She looked deeply at Gu Beichen... The position of her heart, because of his words, for a moment, she forgot to beat. Xu is that the atmosphere is too ambiguous, Xu is that the eyes between each other are too hot... Xu is that everything develops according to common sense and comes naturally. When the thin lips and soft lips fit together, the current under the palpitation at that moment... Spread through Gu Beichen and Jian Mo''s whole body. Jane Mo couldn''t figure it out later. How could she kiss Gu Beichen? Isn''t she telling Gu Beichen that she''s easy to chase? Jane Mo is very depressed. She doesn''t understand why she becomes particularly intelligent in front of Gu Beichen every time "Alas..." Jian Mo sighed and looked at the completed prototype frame diagram on the computer screen, but Gu Beichen was completely in his mind. "Dong Dong!" When the knock came, Jane Mo took back her thoughts and looked... She saw Xiang night coming in with two blue witches in her hands. "Sister mo..." Xiang night walked forward with a gossip face, raised the flowers in her hands and said, "it''s changed again today!" She looked at Jian Mo with bright eyes, "two blue goblins... God, I can''t believe its words are... Meeting is a kind of fate, and I love you is the endless romantic feelings at the end of my soul!" Looking forward to the night, "God, such a man is too emotional and overbearing... Sister Mo, don''t you really think about it?" When Jian Mo heard the flower language said to the evening, she was inexplicably sweet, but she still said coldly: "the person who can''t send flowers doesn''t know what it means." "How possible?" Xiang night immediately said, "first the Campanula, then the taro... Now the blue witch, I can guarantee that it must be the red rose, and directly say ''I love you''!" Jian Mo looked at the blue witch''s line of sight gradually deepened. She thought of what Gu Beichen said to her when she came out of grandma Gu''s house that night... Suddenly, her face burned inexplicably. Seeing him in the evening, he immediately shook his head and said, "sister mo... Are you missing spring?" "..." Jane Mo suddenly returned to her senses, secretly despised herself, and then said with a look that nothing had happened, "it seems... You miss spring more!" After that, she didn''t give Xiang night a chance to continue this topic, and said, "the prototype map has come out. We need to integrate the framework in the next few days. We''ll have a meeting with Ding Dang later." When it comes to work, Xiang night immediately took the joke away, put the flowers on his desk and said, "I''ll have a look." "Oh, by the way..." Jane Mo suddenly said, "how''s Xiaoran who designed the picture?" Xiang Wanyi was stunned and shook his head, "I haven''t asked in these two days..." "Let her come to me in half an hour. I''ll go to president Yu first..." Jian Mo said, copying the prototype map to the USB flash disk, then sliding the mouse to close the frame effect map, and then left the office at night. Emperor''s real estate is the first major project after Xiangyu''s listing. The outside world pays special attention to this because it knows that the person involved in the design is Jian mo. they all hope to see the palpitating design as four years ago. The quietness in the office is in sharp contrast to the excitement in the design department. Someone''s design won the design award in Los Angeles this time. Everyone is yelling for dinner Someone stood in front of Jian Mo''s office, as if very hesitant. He looked at the direction of the design department and Jian Mo''s empty office. Finally, he turned and left Chapter 256 In the past two days, Jian Jie showed unprecedented happiness. Specifically, he was originally copied with Gu Beichen... There was a smile on his dragged face. Because he finally had a father''s birthday... And received four gifts! One to four years old! Li Xiaoyue watched Jian Jie toss about his transformation there. She couldn''t help looking at Jian Mo who was drawing design drawings on the dining table, "Jie Shao, is there a father forgetting his mother?" Jian Mo glanced sideways at Jian Jie and shrugged helplessly, "I found... Gu Beichen is especially good at buying people''s hearts." "That''s not a bribe, Mommy!" Jian Jie glanced at Jian Mo and corrected, "it''s the pay in the heart, pay... Understand?" He raised his chin a little proudly, "unknown daddy is very attentive!" He looked at Jian Mo contemptuously. Jian Jie continued to play with it. He didn''t expect... He had the same preferences as his father. It''s good! Li Xiaoyue looked at the way Jian Jie was smiling with a small mouth. She couldn''t help shaking her head at Jian Mo and sighing: people are born of life, and demons are born of demons... Gu Beichen''s cold and arrogant goods must give birth to Jie Shao. Li Xiaoyue got up and walked towards Jian Mo, sat down beside her and asked softly, "what are you going to do?" Gu Beichen has directly lived in. Is this the rhythm to compound? Jane Mo shook her head. "I didn''t think too much and didn''t resist so much." She knew what she wanted. When she broke up with Chu Zixiao, she found that she liked Gu Beichen, and then "together" with Su Junli for more than four years. She was not confused about who she was interested in or not interested in. For more than four years, my feelings for Gu Beichen have really faded However, this man was born to seduce women. He spared no effort to capture her. She was really a little overwhelmed. Once again, even she felt it was a matter of minutes. Besides, she didn''t seem to have the feeling she imagined... She felt less about him. It''s just that she''s afraid of resistance That night, he told the truth about the divorce. She has been thinking about that day every day for the past two days... Don''t you regret going to the appointment? That''s a lie! Jane Mo sighed helplessly and slightly touched the corners of her lips. Li Xiaoyue saw Jian Mo''s expression and guessed, "girl, will he be because of Jie Shao?" "I don''t know..." Jane Mo told the truth. Li Xiaoyue sighed, "I missed a once. If it''s a heartbeat, don''t resist the present and let the future pass... Girl, Gu Beichen is good." The president of an emperor, whether it''s for Jie Shao to pursue Mo Mo or because of Mo Mo itself However, if what Gu Beichen said is true, the original divorce was just for a new start. This heart alone is worth Mo Mo''s love. The night becomes silent under the bright starry sky. Gu Beichen looked at the video device in front of him and listened to the CEOs of several regions in Europe and America talking about the situation these days. His eyes were deep and deep. Second uncle can''t sit still Gu Beichen sneered coldly and said softly, "stabilizing the stock price is the most important thing at present. I don''t care what method you use, the opening turnover in the next week must be controlled!" Several supervisors look dignified, but they also know that this is inevitable "Break up!" Gu Beichen opened his thin lips and cut off the video after saying coldly. After looking at the time, it''s already more than eight o''clock in the evening Up, Gu Beichen took his suit and coat and went out. Susan saw him come out and handed a folder to her. "Chen Shao, this is the investigation result sent by someone from long Shao''s side..." she said with a heavy face. "The other party obviously wants to muddy the dripping water." Gu Beichen calmly opened his eyes and looked at them. The more he looked, the deeper his eyes were. Finally, he closed the folder with a "pop" and put a sneer on his thin lips. "Since they want to make it muddy, let the water be more muddy." Susan frowned. "Miss Jane''s side..." she stopped talking and looked a little heavy. Gu Beichen''s eyes deepened in an instant. Finally, the corners of his mouth made a self mockery, "I''ll try to protect..." he just dropped such a sentence, and then left with the folder. "You also go back early..." Gu Beichen said before entering the elevator. Susan''s heart is warm. She and Xiao Jing follow chenshao from the wind and rain... Everyone thinks they are just secretaries and special help, but who knows that they know chenshao''s secret? After Gu Beichen got out of the parking lot, he drove away from the Emperor After a week''s rest, Xiao Jing has recovered more than half of his injury, and Lin Nanan has also woke up. However, the man was taken to the military general hospital by master Lin. As for why Lin Nan was injured, old man Lin just left Gu Beichen a word of "don''t check". Gu Beichen knows that Lin Nannan''s affairs involve sensitive issues, so he will not go up against the wind... Moreover, master Lin will not give up on this matter. Gu Beichen drove to Runze garden... As long as he was in Los Angeles, he would try his best to go back except for his injuries in those two days. Even if his scope of activities is the study, living room and guest room! Gu Beichen knows very well that this is only the first step to slowly infiltrate Jianmo Especially after talking to Jian Mo, Gu Beichen felt that he had to take advantage of the hot iron and win it at one fell swoop! Thinking of Jian Mo, Gu Beichen''s thin lips were uncontrollable and gradually raised a comfortable smile... Even his body instinctively became hot! Such enthusiasm is not only the desire of the body, but also the urgency of the soul Just as the car was about to turn into Runze Park, the car phone suddenly rang. Gu Beichen calmly pressed the answer button, and Chu Zixiao''s voice came, "where is it?" "What?" Gu Beichen didn''t directly say where the person was, but asked calmly. "Some things don''t understand. Do you have time?" Chu Zixiao''s voice was obviously dignified. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and then asked, "where is it?" "I''m waiting for you in blues!" Chu Zixiao spoke. "Yes." Gu Beichen hung up the phone after answering the voice, then turned the direction of the car and drove to Blues When the car stopped in blues, Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to Jian Mo: there are some things to deal with. I''m afraid it''s too late to go back. You go to bed first and don''t stay up late... Huh? Jian Mo looked at the text message and began to reject Gu Beichen''s report, but now she slowly accepted it... Even, she felt warm. Jane Mo pursed her lips and replied: OK! Gu Beichen looked at a short word and couldn''t help but raise his thin lips. Then he received his mobile phone and entered the blues. After going to the exclusive area, Chu Zixiao has been waiting there. Seeing Gu Beichen''s stride with one hand, he looks at him and can''t help getting deeper. It''s just that such a deep feeling shows a touch of complex emotion. "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen glanced at Chu Zixiao lightly, asked calmly, and sat down opposite. Gu Xiaochen took a few pieces of paper and ordered it in front of you Gu Beichen glanced coldly at Chu Zixiao, then lowered his eyes and took the paper... When he saw that "Yuanda" was written on it, the eagle''s eyes suddenly became deep. "Beichen," Chu Zixiao asked with his teeth as Gu Beichen''s eyes fell on the paper, "did you do the things Yuanda and Jane Zhanfeng?" Chapter 257 Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but looked at the information of Chu Zixiao''s investigation and turned it page by page Although the information is not detailed, it is not difficult to see that all the spearheads are directed at the Emperor Group... In terms of time, as the last battle between him and his second uncle, Yujing lake is indeed the first to bear the brunt. Slender fingers flipped the paper indifferently. There was no expression on the cold carved face. A pair of eagle eyes were as deep as the sea under the slightly drooping line of sight. The surface was calm without waves, but in fact the undercurrent was turbulent. Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen with forbearance, as if waiting for him to finish reading the materials, and as if waiting for him to answer his own questions. Gu Beichen saw from the beginning to the end, and finally threw the data on the tea table in front of him The slender legs quietly overlapped together, the body slowly leaned on the sofa, and the whole person was calm under indifference. Take out the cigarette, and the steel lighter ''Dang'' slips by, as if to break someone''s taut string Gu Beichen calmly took a breath of smoke and spit out smoke... The curl of white smoke blocked Chu Zixiao''s sight and made him unable to understand it. "Yes or no?" Chu Zixiao asked again. Gradually, he had lost his patience. Gu Beichen didn''t answer. He just leaned over and flicked the ash. Then he looked at Chu Zixiao with deep eyes, "are you a lawyer or a criminal defense lawyer... Zixiao, should you be calm?" "Don''t calm down with me now!" Chu Zixiao gritted his teeth, "if it''s not calm, this doesn''t appear here anymore." Gu Beichen chuckled, but the smile was too light. It always stagnated in the corner of his mouth and didn''t spread for a minute. "Where will it appear?" Gu Beichen said softly, "police station? Court? Or... Media?" Chu Zixiao frowned in an instant, "little uncle!" Gu Beichen''s smile deepened, but there was still not much temperature. When Chu Zixiao would call him "little uncle", he was either helpless or forbearing... Now, it is obviously the latter. "A lot of things, do not say, do not explain... It may be a cover up, or there may be another secret." Gu Beichen still spoke in a flat voice. He didn''t say yes or answer no, "if you have direct evidence, come to me again!" Gu Beichen calmly dropped the last half sentence, and then twisted out the cigarette butts in the ashtray with indifference all over his body His actions are casual and indifferent from beginning to end. In addition to facing Jian Mo, it seems that he has only indifference now! Put down the overlapping legs, Gu Beichen got up and wanted to turn around with one hand However, as soon as he turned around, he stopped, slightly deviated his sight, looked down at Chu Zixiao and said, "I''m curious... You''re busy playing chess with Shaochen. How can you still have time to worry about this!" Gu Beichen converged his eyes and looked ahead. "Zixiao, I said four years ago, persistence is not good! Especially for some things, some people!" "Teng" for a moment, Chu Zixiao stood up, "aren''t you persistent to some people?" "No, I tried to make her happy... Because I thought it was the happiness she wanted!" Gu Beichen looked at Chu Zixiao again, "I just wanted to give her happiness without destroying her when I saw that she was not so happy!" Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly heavy, "but what are you doing now? You''re thinking... You want to make her suffer again!" The words fall, Gu Beichen''s ink pupil has been deeply unable to see to the end, just like a dead pool... After seeing Chu Zixiao, he took back his sight and left with a steady step. Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen''s proud back and couldn''t help clutching his hand The sound of "Gaga" bone dislocation echoed in the quiet space, accompanied by gradually moving footsteps... Creating a crack that could not be healed gradually! Gu Beichen drove to the Runze garden and controlled the steering wheel with one hand... His arm was on the side of the window and his hand shrugged and pulled at will. The eagle''s eyes are as deep as the ink space, solemn and vast... But they are desolate. Things have begun to repeat the mistakes, and the things you are worried about will begin to open step by step Thinking, Gu Beichen''s sight became deeper and deeper. Park the car in the underground parking lot of runzeyuan. Gu Beichen gets off the car after unloading his seat belt, enters the elevator and directly presses the number on the top floor. The narrow space and quiet atmosphere are filled with cold breath. With a Ding, the elevator arrived. Gu Beichen took a step at the moment when the elevator door opened, and then went out. Press the password and stare at the sound of the door lock, but for a moment... The cold from the blues gradually dissipated. Gu Beichen involuntarily raised his thin lips at the moment of opening the door. The light in the house is not only on by induction, but is already on. Gu Beichen could not help but frown slightly, and the eagle''s eyes looked deep inside Jane Mo came out of the kitchen with a bowl of noodles in soup and was stunned at the moment when she saw Gu Beichen. "Didn''t you have an early rest?" Gu Beichen asked with deep eyes. "That..." Jane Mo quickly slipped a touch of embarrassment under her eyes, as if she had been caught doing bad things. "I''m hungry, so..." Gu Beichen''s thin lips had a faint smile, and he didn''t poke Jian Mo''s careful thought, "I''m hungry, too. Is there anything else?" "Oh... Yes!" Because of some "guilty conscience", Jane Mo quickly put down the soup noodles in her hand, turned and went to the kitchen. Looking at Jian Mo''s "run away", Gu Beichen couldn''t help laughing at the bottom of his eyes Wait for him, so you can''t say and behave? Gu Beichen withdrew his suit, then untied the buttons on his shirt sleeve and pulled it up at will. Sitting on the sofa, he ate with Jian Mo''s chopsticks and bowl When Jane Mo brought it out, she glanced discontentedly, "that''s mine!" "It''s all right, I don''t mind..." Gu Beichen took care of himself and ate. "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. That''s not what she meant, okay? Every minute was distorted her meaning, and wanted to buckle the face in her hand directly to Gu Beichen''s face. Jane Mo skimmed her mouth, took the noodles, sat down and began to eat. The atmosphere of noodles became very quiet. "Well... Cough... Cough..." Suddenly, after a forbearance, there was a stuffy cough. Jian Mo quickly put down the bowl, smoked a paper towel and covered his mouth, and began to cough violently. The whole face turned red because of choking. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, put down the bowl and began to carry Jian Moshun back, "are you still a child? You can choke on a meal." Jian Mo was choked, and her tears were about to cough... Suddenly, her wayward temper came up. "Who told you to sit in front of me and eat?" Jane Mo coughed angrily and accused, "don''t you know it will suffocate people?" Chapter 258 Gu Beichen listened, and his sight became deeper and deeper. He tightly coagulated Jane foam, looked at her face, looked at her anger... The depression in his body burst out from the blues. Something was shouting, which made his heart unstable. Since he planned to become the emperor, his heart has never been so flustered at this moment... He is afraid of losing. Such a feeling will break his nerves that are about to hit him. Jian Mo was gradually flustered by Gu Beichen''s hot eyes. While she was still coughing intermittently, her quiet and clear eyes were uncontrollably on Gu Beichen''s. Such a sight is like a fire, which can turn people''s hearts It''s like a piece of ice, straight into your heart, hoping you can melt it! Gu Beichen''s long arm suddenly stretched out, clasped the back of Jian Mo''s brain and pushed her to himself Jane Mo''s instinctive body stiffened, but her thoughts flashed in an instant, and their lips had closed together Or toss, or touch, or gentle, or overbearing No matter which kind, the faint smell mixed with Gu Beichen''s unique taste made Jian Mo sink at this moment. Jian Mo''s originally open eyes gradually closed, and the palpitation in her body rushed directly to her forehead and heart She knew that she was once again occupied by Gu Beichen. Trapped in the truth of his divorce that night What do you say? You can''t call Su Jun, so you always say let it go... Because you can''t do it, so let it go! Because there is a person in her heart, even if she thinks she has forgotten, but... It''s just lying to herself. So... She wants to give birth to milk bags. So... When she returned to Los Angeles, she didn''t reject the house in runzeyuan. Therefore, under Gu Beichen''s strong pursuit, she gradually released her blocked feelings. Xiao Yue is right... She should try, maybe... Is that a different rainbow? Jian Mo''s arm is wrapped around Gu Beichen''s neck. Such a move undoubtedly gives Gu Beichen an invitation Kiss, deeper! Breathe, heavier! Love seems to come naturally When the night gathered together in each other''s crazy exploration, and gradually opened the curtain of a new chapter in life, Gu Beichen knew that only if he worked harder could he let the woman sleep in his arms. For more than four years, the silent feelings have been shouting wildly. Gu Beichen let Jane Mo go when she was about to lose her breath. Her voice was thick and harsh, and said, "Mo''er, I miss you!" Jane Mo''s brain has been kissed blank. She just looked at Gu Beichen with a vague look. Where can Gu Beichen stand the sight of Jian Mo at this moment? He just felt that all the expressions of Jane Mo at the moment were to lure him Gu Beichen secretly clenched his teeth, got up and held Jian Mo horizontally, and then walked to the bedroom Jane Mo didn''t struggle. The enthusiasm in her body was controlled by Gu Beichen''s kiss and her awakened affection... Not only men have bath hope, but also women! It''s just that a woman''s bath hope is only for the man who is excited "Mo''er, if you stop now, I can!" When Gu Beichen put Jian Mo on the bed, he put his hands on both sides of her body, looked at her deeply and said with his teeth. His eyes were as deep as if he were going to swallow Jane''s foam alive! Jane Mo smiled. At that moment, it was like going back to four years ago She put her arms around Gu Beichen, then raised her eyebrows and asked with a smile, "do we have an appointment with each other?" "..." Gu Beichen was stunned, and then said angrily and funny, "count!" Then he looked at the smile spreading from the corners of Jian Mo''s mouth and leaned down The crescent moon is obscured by the slowly drifting clouds, and even the stars are not good at blinking and gradually hide They thought they would be strangers to each other, but when Gu Beichen completely conquered Jianmo castle... He found that such affection would not be forgotten even for another four years. "Mo''er, say you like me!" Gu Beichen is in deep love and Chunchun induces him. Jane Mo was already floating, but she stuck to the last piece of the city, "just want to cheat... Cheat me? Don''t even think about it!" Gu Beichen worked harder, "it''s all right... Our next days are still growing!" Junchen looked at Jane''s face and smiled Is there such a man in your life who can wave his pen indifferently and make people die... But he can also be domineering and arrogant after being tangled up in front of you? Jane Mo thought... She didn''t want to be hypocritical, but she enjoyed the peaceful and loving life of being chased now. "Mo''er," Gu Beichen said at the last moment, lying on Jane Mo''s body with his face buried in her neck, "I love you!" All the nerves of Jane Mo burst and tightened at that moment If Gu Beichen talked about the truth of her divorce four years ago that night and awakened her suppressed feelings... Then the straightforward confession at this moment is a straw that breaks all her concerns! The night is not so long under the embrace. When the dawn tears the darkness of the East and sprinkles its warmth into every corner of Los Angeles, with the arrival of a new day, Jane Mo wakes up in her familiar arms. "Good morning!" Gu Beichen''s low voice came with charm. Jane Mo''s eyes were not fully opened, but the corners of her mouth smiled, "early... I''ve shot a friend!" "Speak well..." Gu Beichen sank his face. "Can you speak?" Jane Mo smiled more, opened her eyes and got up at the same time. Then she kissed Gu Beichen at the corner of her mouth, "well, next time it''s called xiaobailian!" Then she didn''t take care of Beichen''s twitching handsome face and turned over to get out of bed. However, the person hasn''t completely dodged. Gu Beichen has dragged her back and pressed her down! "Gun friend?" Gu Beichen''s voice was light. "Little white face?" The voice was more dark, and the eagle''s eyes were slightly cold, with a dangerous smell. Jane Mo smiled. "Dissatisfied? Then I''ll think about some better ones later?" She pretended to be silent and said, "good friend? HMM... or bed companion... Still... HMM..." Jian Mo''s words didn''t go on. Gu Beichen sealed his mouth and swallowed all the words behind him. Jane Mo''s eyes are full of smiles. That feeling... Is called heartbeat. However, when Gu Beichen polished his long gun because of such an angry kiss, and the bullets were full of the gun chamber ready to shoot, there was a knock on the door "Dong Dong!" It''s not loud because it''s not strong enough. "Mommy..." Jane Jie''s voice came, "if you don''t get up and cook, you and I will be late!" Chapter 259 Gu Beichen suddenly found out that he was happy to be a father, but when the son always intentionally or unintentionally pit his father, he was also very depressed! Jane Mo was suddenly stunned. Did she just indulge in the beautiful man''s plan and leave her job? "What should I do?" Jian Mo asked subconsciously, and she thought about Gu Beichen''s stomach all over. "Regardless of him, let''s go first..." Gu Beichen said calmly. Jane Mo immediately looked black, and then went to push Gu Beichen. "I see..." she first shouted back to the milk bag, "get up right away!" "Oh!" Jane Jie answered, and then there was no movement. "Get up!" Jane Mo clenched her teeth and whispered, "you killed you..." "You just didn''t enjoy it?" Gu Beichen sneered. The son shouted, the morning exercise is not enough... Anyway, the fortress has been conquered, Gu Beichen thought, turned back and worked harder to remove all the defense lines of Jian mo. Of course, he didn''t think about it. Jane went to bed with him again, which is to completely get back together with him Men need to bear. And this commitment is not only life, but also the emotion of the woman you love! Jane Mo quickly put on her clothes and said, "don''t come out. Wait until we go..." she said angrily. "I don''t know what to think when I see you in my room." Gu Beichen looked indifferent. "I''m your husband and his father. What''s so strange." "Wait!" Jian Mo''s key question is not ambiguous. Looking at Gu Beichen, he said, "you''re not my husband... You''re my ex husband!" "..." Gu Beichen Junyan immediately cooled down and was very dissatisfied with the "ex husband" in Jian Mo''s mouth. "We didn''t get a divorce certificate. We were married!" Gu Beichen said coldly. Seeing that Jian Mo wanted to speak, he said again, "even if Zixiao is more powerful, can one person fight my whole lawyer group?" "..." now, Jane Mo was speechless. Then she choked out, "anyway, our marriage is invalid!" Gu Beichen saw that she was angry. He couldn''t help but raise his thin lips and didn''t continue the topic. Jane Mo glared at Beichen and opened the door However, when she saw Jane Jie''s little figure standing at the door, she almost had a myocardial infarction. "Why are you standing here?" Jane Mo asked subconsciously. Don''t you usually flash after calling her? "I saw the unknown daddy''s shoes in the porch, but there was no one in the study and guest room!" Jian Jie fanned his black eyes, looked up at Jian Mo and asked, "Mommy, where''s the unknown daddy?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. Why did she think she could hide the milk bag with high IQ? She was crying again Jane Mo is neither going in nor going out to close the door at the moment. She feels like she is trying to cover up. When he was embarrassed, he looked down at Jane and walked out. Then he looked down at her and hugged her All the actions are natural, just like the scene at this moment is taken for granted, and there is no need for embarrassment at all. "Unknown daddy, did you come out of Mommy''s room?" Jane Jie''s voice is full of calm analysis under the tender. "Yes." Gu Beichen responded lightly. Jane Jie frowned. "Have you made up with Mommy?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows, "still trying..." "Oh..." Jane Jie was a little lost, but she didn''t ask again. He likes this father very much. If he can get rid of Mommy quickly, they will be a real family! After that, there will be mommy and daddy on every birthday... Other children spend their birthdays with mommy and daddy only once! Jian Mo stood at the door and watched Gu Beichen walk away with the milk bag. At this moment, she deeply felt that "thick black study" was good. It was a university question! At this point, Jane Mo can only pretend to wash as if nothing had happened, and then prepare breakfast... But the breakfast for two has gradually become for three. "I''ll take you to work and school!" Gu Beichen said calmly. "No need..." Jane Mo skimmed. "My company is just a few steps away." "Unknown daddy, Mommy doesn''t need it, I need it!" Jane Jay was very awesome, and said with great pride. "..." Jane Mo was speechless and looked at Jane Jie gnashing her teeth. When she wanted to give him a gift before, why did he look like he hated it... He always said "OK"? Why is Gu Beichen not OK? Gu Beichen''s thin lips lifted a faint radian and looked at Jian Mo, with a touch of pride in his deep fundus of eyes. Jane Mo knows that the longer something is depressed... The more urgent people will be. Before, the milk bag pretended not to care about the existence of "Daddy", but in fact it just suppressed... Now, Gu Beichen''s daddy appeared, and he immediately showed his desire. Maybe he could bear it when he first met, but... With contact, he became more and more greedy. For such cognition, Jane Mo''s nose is sour in an instant She didn''t do well enough, so she didn''t find her son''s mind. I always thought he was smart and understood... But I always ignored that the milk bag was only a four-year-old child. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes and said gently, "I''ll come back for dinner in the evening... Is that ok?" Jian Jie''s eyes lit up instantly when he heard it, but... He just pursed his little mouth and looked at Jian Mo without talking. Jane Mo looks at Jane Jie''s forbearing expectation at the bottom of her eyes. Where can she bear to refuse? No matter what happened to her and Gu Beichen in the end, at the moment when Er became emotional last night... Her heart was occupied, wasn''t it? "If Gu doesn''t mind buying vegetables..." Jian Mo said with some proud eyebrows, and then turned to change her clothes. Jian Jie''s eyes turned into a smile, and then looked at Gu Beichen and picked his eyebrows... Where is the grievance under the just desire? "Happy cooperation!" Jane Jie poked out her little hand. Gu Beichen and Jian Jie finished a high five, and their thin lips gently raised an evil radian, "happy cooperation!" Father and son are "colluding" outside. It seems that Jane Mo, who is changing clothes, doesn''t know at all. The three went downstairs together. Jian Mo walked to the company, and Gu Beichen sent Jian Jie to the kindergarten... Just like thousands of families, ordinary and happy. Jane Mo just arrived at the company and found that the atmosphere was a little strange. She couldn''t help wrinkling slightly and invisibly. "Mo Mo..." when Sun Ke saw that Jane Mo came, he hurried forward with a newspaper in his hand. "Have you read the morning newspaper?" Jane Mo shook her head. She didn''t have the habit of reading newspapers. "Look!" Jane Mo took the puzzled eyes of the newspaper and saw that the big red and bold title on the front page was particularly eye-catching ¡ª¡ªSuspected designer Jane Mo sold her body for money and paid off her debts for the gambler''s brother! Chapter 260 Jane Mo''s face turned white with a brush, and even her hand holding the newspaper became slightly trembling Her breathing began to become short. Jane Mo tried to control her emotions and prevent the nightmares of the night six years ago from echoing in her mind... But she couldn''t. When she saw the speculation of the reporter in the report and the true story, Jian Mo''s body began to harden. She thought it was all over. She had been abroad for more than four years. She thought it was all over... But no! It was dark and hard to swallow. Jane Mo stared at the newspaper as if she was going to burn it. Such a report instantly broke all the relaxed and happy mood before Jian Mo came into the cold world Sun Ke looked at Jian Mo and thought she was angry with such a report. She couldn''t help but say angrily, "I don''t know who did it like this?" I''m sure it''s the emperor who participated in the project this time... " "Yes!" Ding Dang and others also came from the office area, "this is the slander of red fruit!" "Sister Mo, tell this newspaper..." Xiang night said angrily, "a new newspaper is simply to attract people''s attention!" Mu Xiaoran looked at Jian Mo, "sister Mo, these people are too much..." Everyone said what I said, and some people came again and again. Jian Mo and I are old colleagues, so we are naturally angry. And those who later, no matter what they think in their heart, are always inconvenient to speak. Jane Mo closed her eyes, took a deep breath, then raised her eyes, so she said calmly, "I''ll investigate this matter..." she clenched her gums, "thank you for your concern." Then she turned around, pushed open the glass door of the office and walked in. Xiangwan and others looked at Jian Mo with a worried face. They didn''t understand why a designer who worked so hard recruited villains? Four years ago, four years later "These bitches!" He scolded angrily to the evening, "if you have the ability, you''ll be a villain behind your back!" Mo Xiaoya just arrived, because she didn''t see the newspaper, she was still a little confused Da Xiong whispered the matter, and immediately Mo Xiaoya stared, "this newspaper is too much... Does it slander women''s reputation like this?" The people outside were angry. After a while, Jian Mo received a call from Tang Haoyang and asked her to go there. Jian Mo looked at the newspaper, clenched his hand, pressed down the panic in his heart and went to Tang Haoyang. "Does the company need to come forward?" Tang Haoyang asked, "such a negative impact is too great..." he sighed. No matter how much talent you have, when such gossip is spread ten or ten, the fake becomes true. In this way, all the efforts of Jane Mo will be in vain... Even if she depends on her ability in the future, others will not see her like that. Jane Mo is in a mess at the moment. Although it can be seen that... The report is made up, it is not difficult to see that the other party still knows something. Jane Mo said it was false not to be afraid. If they were against this newspaper, would they really explode everything? Tang Haoyang sees Jian Mo''s entanglement. Such a thing is really difficult to deal with... No matter you ignore or face it, someone will gossip. Ignore, say default. Face it, say you''re afraid of the truth being revealed "Think about it. I''ll discuss it with Mr. Yu later." Tang Haoyang said with a deep sigh. He didn''t understand how Jane Mo tortured the scandal. Jian Mo left Tang Haoyang''s office. After returning to his office, he couldn''t put his mind on the design drawing at all. She looked at the newspaper and held her mobile phone in a helpless way... I don''t know why. At this moment, she really wanted to call Gu Beichen, even if... Listen to his voice! As if all the strength in Jane Mo''s body had been evacuated in an instant, she drooped her shoulders, put her forehead against the desk, and there was a fear of hesitation in her eyes. After such a long time... Why is this candy bar right there? ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen looked at the newspaper Susan gave him. The whole handsome face was dark, as if a storm had suddenly hit. "Contact the person in charge of the newspaper," Gu Beichen said indifferently. "All the people involved in this matter will give me the list within half an hour!" Susan answered quickly, and then she wanted to go out to deal with it Before the door was opened, Xiao Jing came in, "aren''t you in the hospital?" Susan asked subconsciously. "Not so fragile..." Xiao Jing has been well. After all, he was born and grew up, not so delicate. "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing came forward, "it''s too late for me to know..." he said. He put a piece of paper in front of Gu Beichen. "Everything that can be stopped has been stopped. There are two newspapers and periodicals in urgent printing. How to deal with it?" Now it''s just one, and now it''s two... Even if the rest is handled, online media is an uncontrollable factor. "Including this..." Gu Beichen looked at the first newspaper, "complete the acquisition before the morning!" Xiao Jing was not surprised. Chen Shao chased Jian Mo so carefully. Now that such a thing happened, you can imagine how angry he was... Besides, the man in those years was Chen Shao himself! "What about the network expert you received last time?" Gu Beichen opened his mouth coldly, and the eagle''s eyes were full of violence under danger. "Already contacted, processing!" Xiao Jing replied. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and suddenly, a terrible glare came out of his eyes, "I want the fastest speed... Let all the rumors of Jian Mo disappear!" Coldly speaking, there is a smell of bloodthirsty. Xiao Jing and Susan are people who have been with Gu Beichen for a long time... They all know very well that Gu Beichen is really angry this time! When people are worried, they are waiting for a good play The news about Jane Mo using her body to repay her brother''s gambling debts did not spring up, but gradually disappeared, as if it had never happened. After noon, a news on the financial channel attracted the attention of all parties Emperor Group has been involved in a wide range, but it has never set foot in the media and entertainment industry. One morning, it was reported that emperor has successively acquired three newspapers and one publication... This is not only incomprehensible to people in the industry. Is the emperor going to enter the entertainment industry? Why didn''t there be any sign before And some people also see the problem... One of the newspapers the emperor bought this time is the one that published the scandal of Jane mo. I don''t know whether there is a connection between the two, but people with many things naturally like to connect many things and win attention. However, when the emperor''s Propaganda Department announced in the afternoon that it would set up an entertainment brokerage company and build a private TV station in Los Angeles, everyone could not help believing that the emperor was just trying to enter the entertainment industry. After all, it''s possible for a group as big as emperor to buy several newspapers for a woman... But it''s a big deal to build a private TV station! Jane Mo was in a state of anxiety all day. She looked at the news on the Internet and gradually pursed her lips... Finally, she took her mobile phone and sent a text message to Gu Beichen. Mo''er: Thank you! Gu Beichen didn''t reply to the text message, but called directly, "Mo''er, don''t go home for dinner at night, I''ll take you to a place!" It''s time to tell her the truth... Don''t let such fear stay in her heart! Chapter 261 "Where are you going?" Jane Mo''s nose was a little sour. She endured it for a day. At this moment, she heard Gu Beichen''s voice. The feeling of emptiness was much better in an instant. "I promised the milk bag to go home for dinner in the morning." "Today is the exception, he will understand." Gu Beichen''s voice is deep and magnetic. It''s as mellow as a cello and reassuring. Jane Mo doesn''t know how to face Gu Beichen at the moment. The relationship between them is already very chaotic. She was confused last night, and she is very sad today. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen shouted in a deep voice, "there are some things I want to tell you, just today... OK?" Jane Mo didn''t know what Gu Beichen was going to say to her, but she didn''t know how to face it, "I..." "You don''t want to think about anything and wait calmly... Huh?" Gu Beichen said softly. Jane Mo inexplicably calmed down because of Gu Beichen''s words, "OK!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently raised an arc if it seemed to have nothing, "um..." he answered and said, "I''ll say it over there, Xiao Jie." "Of course you say!" Jian Mo grumbled angrily, "I rarely promise him that I can''t do anything... Moreover, I said, he must hurt me again!" Speaking of this, Jane Mo was a little angry, but it''s not hard to hear that she enjoyed it again. Gu Beichen laughed at Jian Mo''s anger. "Hmm..." he answered softly, "don''t think about those things now, huh?" Jane Mo''s heart is warm... That feeling is like there is such a man around you. You don''t need to be afraid of any wind and rain. She said thank you because she felt that the emperor would not happen to enter the entertainment industry, because the afternoon press conference was too deliberate to some extent. He didn''t ask because he didn''t believe the reports? Or... Did he just trust her? Jane Mo didn''t ask, because... She was afraid to hear the answer she didn''t want to hear. After hanging up the phone, Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing with deep eyes. Xiao Jing nodded and called the people waiting outside the door in. "Chen Shao..." Xie Haitian nodded and bowed in. Unlike the mess in the tube building four years ago, he looks much fresher now. "Did the Internet media track the IP address?" Gu Beichen asked coldly. Xie Haitian nodded. "It''s a foreign one, but it''s a virtual IP... So it''s not very valuable." Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly cold. It can be said that few people knew about things in those years There are rules on the road. They won''t open their mouth with the media, so... Shen Hao ruled out. And Jian Heng was sent to Angola, where the civil war was serious. It was not easy for him who had no strength or even a home to live... There was still time to make waves with the media? Most importantly, as soon as Jane Mo comes back, wouldn''t it be better if he wanted to threaten... Money? Gu Beichen pondered for a moment, then looked at Xiao Jing, "check whether Jian truss is still in Angola!" "Chen Shao means..." Xiao Jing was surprised. Because after sending Jian Heng away, he didn''t think he could come back. In addition, Jian Mo also went abroad. Chen Shao wanted to complete Jian mo... Finally, this person didn''t pay attention. If today''s work was done by Jian Heng... Don''t say that this brother is really inferior to animals, but how did he do it? "If... Some people''s minds move, who knows?" As Gu Beichen spoke, his sight narrowed slightly into a gap. At the same time, he had opened his eyes. The sharp light change in a moment made Xie Haitian feel cold in his heart Even though I have had less contact with Chen many times in recent years, I still feel a chill on the soles of my uncontrollable feet when I see his expression. This day, in the ups and downs of gossip and all kinds of external comments Chu Zixiao looked at the newspaper and put a cold arc on the corner of his mouth... Beichen for Jian Mo has broken the principle of not stepping into the entertainment industry! Not moved or admired, Chu Zixiao''s eyes were cold Everything has changed. When something changes, the state of mind also changes. Li Xiaoyue received a call from Gu Beichen and was even more surprised when he said he would send Jian Jie to her home. "You and Mo Mo are going on a date?" Li Xiaoyue asked. "Give her a heart knot..." Gu Beichen said without concealment. Li Xiaoyue frowned slightly. "What was reported this morning?" She''s light. Gu Beichen said "well" "President Gu, if..." Li Xiaoyue forbeared and asked, "I mean, if... Foam is really as reported, what would you think?" "I want her!" Gu Beichen slowly opened his mouth and said three words, which showed the domineering spirit of being indisputable. Li Xiaoyue smiled. "I hope you do what you say..." she sighed. "It''s really not easy for Mo Mo these years. I hope you don''t take this as a game... She can''t afford to play!" "Now, no matter how much commitment you make, it may turn sour at last," Gu Beichen said calmly. "Why don''t we wait and see?" "Good!" Li Xiaoyue answered without saying anything. A man''s promise is the most beautiful lie. It''s better to do it honestly than his illusory promise! The driver drove and Gu Beichen personally picked up Jian Jie Now he is still in the stage of chasing Jian mo. he doesn''t want the media to scribble, causing the living burden of Jian Jie and Jian mo. The driver got off because Jane Mo had called the teacher before. He quickly took Jane Jie and got on the bus. Jane Jie was a little confused: "there''s something wrong with you picking me up!" Gu Beichen smiled. "I''m going to implement the wife chasing plan in the evening..." he slightly raised his eyebrows. "Because of the chance, tonight''s son may get twice the result with half the effort. Can you let us break our appointment once?" As soon as Jane Jie heard this, he immediately brightened his eyes. "How sure are you?" "Hmm..." Gu Beichen pondered, and then felt a little distressed. "Sometimes your mommy''s brain circuit doesn''t work, and I can''t guarantee it. However, to be sure, tonight is a big breakthrough." "In that case, I can only give in!" "However, you have to step up... Otherwise, when you come back from city a, you will be blocked again." Gu Beichen thin lips slightly Yang, "I won''t give him this chance again!" The corners of Jian Jie''s mouth also smiled... Looking at Gu Beichen, he had a deep worship, which was his son''s worship of his father. Sent Jian Jie to Li Xiaoyue, and Gu Beichen went to Lingyu international downstairs to wait. Because the off-duty time has passed, Jane Mo is not the same as a thief The driver has gone home. Gu Beichen drove the car himself. After Jian Mo fastened his seat belt, he slid the car into the traffic flow. "Where are you going?" Jane Mo asked with a little heart. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo and didn''t answer. He just drove the car. However, when the car stopped at the Sofia Hotel, Jane Mo''s face instantly turned pale Instinctively, she turned to Gu Beichen and asked, "you believe the report, don''t you?" Chapter 262 Looking at the panic at the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes and the resistance under his instinct, Gu Beichen felt a pain for a while... It was as if a needle had pierced his heart. "Tonight..." Gu Beichen asked softly, with a low voice and soothing, "... Give me all the time, okay?" After a pause, he continued, "I mean... Any!" Jane Mo pursed her lips and looked at Gu Beichen, breathing subconsciously... Even her hand on the seat belt could not help but clench it. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. He didn''t continue to talk... He just waited for Jian Mo to eliminate all the resistance to him in his heart. Jian Mo''s lips are getting tighter and tighter. She looks at Gu Beichen without blinking. The bottom of her eyes is completely complex emotion That kind of, it seems that the surging of each other''s talent last night is false, and it seems that as long as she hands out her hand, she will have a different world In this way, the polarized thoughts and two villains were pulling on her nerves. Eyelash feather gently fanned, Jane Mo bit her lip and looked at Gu Beichen After a while, Jian Mo just clenched her teeth and said slowly, "Gu Beichen... If I give everything to you today, do you understand what it means to me?" It already takes a lot of courage to accept a man who has stopped in his life again Women are different from men. Men''s sexual stimulation is physical and sensory stimulation. Although women also have bath hopes for sex... However, they only have bath hopes for the man who touches your nerves in the bottom of their heart. Today''s report came so suddenly that she hesitated and feared all day. The report was removed quickly, even the last emperor''s news... At that moment, she knew that it was Gu Beichen''s vigorous means. Feel relieved and more worried She didn''t know what he would think of her or whether he would believe it. But he brought her to Sofia... The night six years ago, she lost all her place to start. I thought she could let go of everything when she came to England to say goodbye... But that''s not the case! That night was a night that overturned her life... It''s not easy to put it down? Go in, if Gu Beichen wants to report... This man, even if her heart recovers for him again, she will only choose to leave! Gu Beichen''s eyes coagulated, and Jian Mo became deeper and deeper. His cold, carved face was even deeper. He said softly with his thin lips: "Mo''er, two years of marriage... Do you think I will despise you because of this?" He asked without explaining that night. "That''s different..." Jane Mo''s hand holding the seat belt has turned white. She is nervous and afraid! Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight deeper, "the same!" He was so cold that he clenched his teeth and said, "because you are Jianmo. You are the Jianmo I Gu Beichen wants to love... And the only Jianmo I want to love in my life!" After that, Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo deeply, then took off his seat belt and got out of the car first Jian Mo was shocked by Gu Beichen''s words, which couldn''t be reflected, but subconsciously followed his actions and turned his eyes. Bypassing the front of the car, Gu Beichen opened the co pilot''s door, leaned in and untied Jian Mo''s seat belt, and then watched her cling to her seat belt and stretch out her hand "Mo''er, give me your hand..." Gu Beichen said in a low and magnetic way. Mo Tong looked at Jian Mo and had solidified into a piece, "... After that, I will face all the ups and downs with you." What is the most beautiful love word in the world... Jane Mo doesn''t know. She just knew that when Gu Beichen said this sentence, her heart, which had been strong for more than four years, cracked under the warm embrace of last night, and completely collapsed in his sentence. "Gu Beichen," Jane Mo said softly, but the corners of her mouth were smiling, just sad and covering up her inner uneasiness. She gently put her hand on Gu Beichen''s palm and said, "if it''s still a dream, I''ll die..." then, her eyes were wet and looked up at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "I still want you to accompany me all my life. How can I be willing to let you die?" With a slight sound, he took Jian Mo out of the car at the same time. Jane Mo is not afraid of being seen at this moment. Even if she sees it, what happens? She let Gu Beichen hold her hand tightly and brought her into this place that changed her life The resplendent hall and bright glass lamps are particularly bright at night. Gu Beichen went to the front desk. Under the curious eyes of the front desk staff, he gave him the room card that had been handled by the former boss Xing long. Without any stop, Gu Beichen took Jian Mo to the elevator Jane Mo didn''t look at the rising figures, but looked at Gu Beichen''s cold side face, with the firmness of the last fight in the bottom of her eyes. The sound of "Ding" broke the silence. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo stared deeply, and then took her to the pre opened room! The sound of "Yiyi" was particularly loud in the empty corridor. Jian Mo took a deep breath and looked at the door number The consternation and resistance from the bottom of her eyes came when she saw the door number. Before she thought deeply, Gu Beichen had pulled her in. Jane Mo''s breath was uncontrollable. She didn''t know why Gu Beichen brought her to this room... Just, she resisted. After six years, it has been renovated, and it is not everything familiar at the beginning Jian Mo subconsciously clenched his hand and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen turned slightly and looked at Jian Mo, and then slowly opened his mouth: "the outside world has a lot of speculation about me becoming the Emperor... Ke Mo''er, do you know?" He paused slightly, his thin lips continued to open, but his voice showed the solemnity of the past, "six years ago... I almost went to jail!" Jane Mo didn''t expect Gu Beichen to say something about him. She accidentally widened her eyes, "what do you mean? Why do you want to go to jail?" Gu Beichen deeply coagulated Jian Mo, "the crime of imprisonment is... Seduction!" "..." Jane Mo''s pupils expanded instantly. "The place of ''lure''..." Gu Beichen moved his temples slightly, and then said slowly, "this is the room!" Jane Mo''s heart began to tremble uncontrollably Just listen to Gu Beichen continue to say: "and the heroine of ''Seduction''... Is a woman called Jian Mo!" With a bang, a thunder burst in Jian Mo''s mind. She thought a lot about the outcome she would face after tonight... But she never thought about it. It''s like this! "You lied to me, didn''t you?" Jane Mo was light. Eh, her breathing was in a mess. "You just want to comfort me... Gu Beichen, aren''t you?" She finally growled. Chapter 263 "Jane Mo, look at me!" Gu Beichen grabbed Jian Mo''s sight with his eagle eyes. "That night, it was raining heavily... That night, it was the end of summer... That night, you were drugged by Jian Heng and sent here... That night..." he said finally, he had bitten his teeth, "your hasty escape saved me and the emperor!" Jane Mo''s brain is completely useless. She seems to be really like what her son and Gu Beichen said. Her IQ is very stupid! The wooden fan looks at the eyelashes, and Jian Mo looks at Gu Beichen in a daze Six years ago, on a rainy night in late summer, he was drugged by Jian Heng "Gu Beichen, were you really that night?" Jane Mo asked in surprise as if she had just cleared her hair. "Yes!" Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "it''s me..." Jian Mo''s heart was blown open in an instant, and then all kinds of emotions came to mind She didn''t know whether she was relieved or happy at the moment. In short, when she sorted out the people that night, she seemed to be light. Her Jian Jie kept looking at the time. His small face didn''t look very expressive, but his black pupil was flashing with anxiety. Seeing that Jian Jie looked at the time again, Li Xiaoyue couldn''t help laughing and asked, "why? I''m afraid your unknown daddy ate your mommy?" "I''m afraid mommy''s brain doesn''t work," Chien Chieh said. "What if daddy''s tricks don''t work for her?" Li Xiaoyue laughed, "before Su Jun left chasing Mo Mo, why didn''t I see you so enthusiastic?" "That''s different!" Jian Jie proudly picked up his chin and said with adoration in his eyes, "this is my father!" Li Xiaoyue immediately choked, "Jie Shao, you treat me differently... Really good?" Jian Jie shrugged his small shoulders and refused to comment. However, he couldn''t help but look at the time again and murmured, "I''m so anxious. I don''t know what''s going on..." as he said, he turned his mobile phone out of his schoolbag. "I think it''s better to call the unknown daddy to ask!" Chapter 264 When the love is strong, the natural love is deep, and the heat releases each other''s enthusiasm Jian Mo and Gu Beichen''s kiss seemed to devour everything of each other, crazy and hot. Everything is so natural that they can''t wait to have each other and remember the night six years ago I don''t know when they have retreated to the bedside. Gu Beichen''s lips didn''t leave Jian mo... So they pressed down Just when Gu Beichen was going to have a big fight, the mobile phone shook wildly in his pocket. Such a shock, numb and astringent Gu Beichen''s skin, but also slowly woke up Jian Mo''s addicted mood. All the enthusiasm slightly stagnated, Gu Beichen secretly clenched his teeth... If there''s nothing important, whoever it is, kill it! Angrily, he took out his mobile phone. When he saw that the mobile phone showed "Xiaojie", Gu Beichen helped his forehead. "What''s the matter?" Jian Mo raised her eyebrows and looked at Gu Beichen with bright eyes. Her face was dyed red because of the lingering deep kiss. Gu Beichen flipped his cell phone and looked at Jian Mo, "your son is too Keng father!" Jian Mo looked at the caller ID and listened to Gu Beichen''s words. It was immoral... Smiled! "Ha ha..." Jian Mo was very happy. "I''ve endured it for years. It''s your turn! Besides, what''s my son... Gu Beichen," she said with a deep face. "Isn''t it your son?" Gu Beichen was helpless and sweet. While answering the phone, he pecked at Jian Mo''s lips "Unknown daddy, have you finished Mommy?" Jane Jie''s voice came childish, with a trace of dissatisfaction and urgency. Gu Beichen''s thin lips fell thickly on Jian Mo''s cheek. When she felt her breathing gradually heavy, there was a dangerous and hot breath in the depths of the eagle''s eyes, "if you can be more calm, maybe... It''ll be done." As soon as Jane Jie heard this, her little face was bitter, "sorry!" Gu Beichen was made guilty by the little guy''s bitterness, "me and Mo''er will pick you up, huh?" "Rub" for a while, Jane Jie''s black pupil suddenly brightened, "really?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen said with a smile, and then kissed Jane Mo silently on her lips. Mo Tong looked at Jane Mo helplessly, "I''ll be there in less than an hour..." At the same time, Gu Beichen got up from Jian Mo and looked at Jian Mo''s complacency and a smile of "you have today", although there were some small regrets, but... He was happy in his heart. His Mo''er is really back this time Gu Beichen hung up Jane Jie''s phone. Just after Jane Mo got up, his long arm fished her waist and rolled around her lips for a while. His voice was hoarse and said in her ear, "the future is long, I will make good compensation for today!" The hot air spread on the skin around the ears, making people palpitating. Jian Mo chuckled at the corners of her mouth, but her eyes were slightly arrogant, "Mr. Gu... You and I are not going to be long in the future, who knows?" Gu Beichen got up and looked at Jian Mo with a slight frown, and the ink pupil was deep. "It seems... Our relationship is not so close now!" Jane morjiao said with a smile, her eyes full of cunning. Gu Beichen smiled, his thin lips shallow raised a domineering arc, "the woman Gu Beichen likes... I see who dares to peep at other men! You..." he paused deliberately, "... It''s mine sooner or later!" "Domineering..." Jane Mo glanced at her eyes, noncommittal on her face. "Is bullying in line with my setting?" Gu Beichen deliberately answered with Jian Mo''s words. Then, in her slight surprise, he had sorted her clothes and took her hand out of the room. "What would you like to eat?" Gu Beichen asked. "Whatever..." "And casually?" Jane Mo smiled, "let''s go to ''another meal''?" "OK..." Gu Beichen answered gently and took Jian Mo''s hand and disappeared into the elevator. ¡­¡­ The sound in the heavy metal bar was still noisy and unbearable. Mo Shaochen looked at Shen Chu in the hot dance indifferently and calmly, and his eyes gradually deepened. While the mobile phone vibrates constantly on the desktop, the screen flashes. Mo Shaochen looked at Shen Chu on the dance floor, and then went outside with his mobile phone A door blocked the noise inside, but it never completely disappeared Mo Shaochen calmly picked up the phone and put it in his ear, "what''s the matter?" "Lawyer Mo, something strange has been found in this case. Would you like to come back and have a look?" On the phone, came the voice of Han Yifei, a lawyer at Mo Shaochen law firm. Mo Shaochen''s eyes gradually deepened, "what''s the situation?" "If this case goes on like this, how do you feel that some of them are signs of the case in the case?" Han Yifei frowned and said. Mo Shaochen remained indifferent, "we are lawyers, not police... You just need to finalize the case you are responsible for, don''t understand?" "Just..." Han Yifei grinned secretly, and then said, "I think it may have something to do with the emperor, so..." Mo Shaochen suddenly narrowed his eyes, then opened it and said, "you put the file on my desk. You get off work first." "OK..." Han Yifei answered and hung up. He turned over the next file again and looked puzzled, "how do you feel wrong..." he murmured, then turned his lips, put his sorted file in Mo Shaochen''s office and left from work. Mo Shaochen returned to the bar and his subconscious vision fell on the stage When I saw the tattoo on the man''s arm, I was dancing with the man''s face. Mo Shaochen stepped forward with great strides. After entering the stage, without saying anything, he grabbed Shen Chu''s wrist and pulled her back. "What are you doing? Let me go..." Shen Chu roared discontentedly and wanted to break free. Mo Shaochen ignored her and just took her out "Hey, people don''t want to go with you. What are you pulling?" The tattooed man has jumped off the dance floor and stopped Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen''s sharp eyes coldly fell on the tattooed man, "get out of the way!" As soon as the tattooed man heard this, he sneered and directly hugged his chest in front of Mo Shaochen. "How arrogant? Ha ha... I want to see how arrogant you are!" Mo Shaochen coldly slightly hooked the corners of his lips, completely disdaining the tattooed man. Shen Chu frowned invisibly and wanted to get rid of Mo Shaochen, "let go, I''m going to the bathroom..." Mo Shaochen didn''t let go. He knew that Shen Chu''s words were not true. The tattooed man smiled and looked at Shen Chu. "I can accompany you..." he said, and he wanted to pull Shen Chu''s other hand. Mo Shaochen''s eyes sank and pulled Shen Chu down behind his back At the same time, the tattooed man''s eyes were cold. Immediately, he went to pull Shen Chu''s hand into a fist... Then, with a fierce wind, he slipped to Mo Shaochen''s face Chapter 265 Shen Chu''s eyes widened in an instant and subconsciously shouted, "Shaochen, be careful!" While Shen Chu shouted out, Mo Shaochen leaned back and just avoided the tattooed man''s fist... But the fist wind on the fist brushed his cheek and was numb for a while. Shen Chu hurriedly caught Mo Shaochen. "You can''t fight..." she said eagerly, and then wanted to take him out. But where would the tattooed man let go? "I want to go now?" He sneered and saw a slight pick in his eyes. Suddenly, several men from all directions surrounded him. Shen Chu looked around, finally bit his lips, then looked at Mo Shaochen and said, "let go of me..." "Impossible!" Mo Shaochen spoke coldly, as if he didn''t care about the people around him. "I''ll see if you''re still so hard spoken later!" The tattooed man hissed coldly and then motioned to the people around him. The people in the bar are watching the excitement. This is not the first time to see such a scene. No one will foolishly dissuade anything If something happens, there will be police. Nothing happened... Let''s just watch it. However, everyone is not optimistic about Mo Shaochen. After all... Even if he is powerful, it is difficult for one person to parry so many people. Besides... He doesn''t look very good. "Mo Shaochen, you let go!" Shen Chu''s eyes coagulated a touch of unconscious worry, "I don''t care what you want to do. Don''t bother me... Let go!" Mo Shaochen glanced at her coldly, but didn''t let go The people who gathered around have been in a posture one after another. Under the sign of the tattooed man, someone went to catch Shen Chu, and someone waved his fist and raised his legs to greet Mo Shaochen Mo Shaochen''s face was cold, and he had already pulled Shen Chu into his arms They didn''t expect Mo Shaochen to have skills. After looking at each other one by one, they coldly accelerated the attack. Mo Shaochen''s skills were all fought with Gu Beichen when he was a child... If there was no Shen Chu at the moment, he wouldn''t pay attention to these people at all. However, he didn''t want Shen Chu to get hurt, so he naturally tied his hands and feet. Shen Chu''s face became serious with the fight. She wanted Mo Shaochen to let go... But she was afraid of his distraction. But he''s a lawyer... How can he fight on such an occasion? Shen Chu''s worried eyebrows frowned. Mo Shaochen fought back with his hands and feet and kept resisting. Their faces were tense and cold, forming a strong contrast "Bang -" "Click..." "Ah..." While the sound of fighting came, there were screams of tables and chairs being overwhelmed and people retreating. However, the fight was in full swing, and no one was in the mood to pay attention to it. Suddenly, the tattooed man''s eyes sank. When several of his men entangled Mo Shaochen, he wanted to pull Shen Chu in Mo Shaochen''s arms Where will Mo Shaochen let tattooed men succeed? He turned slightly and avoided the tattooed man''s hand... But there was no way to avoid the attack of the tattooed man''s men. When the "bang" came, Mo Shaochen made an uncontrollable sound of pain. He just felt that the foot on his back was like a sledgehammer hitting his back. "Shaochen..." Shen Chu''s face turned white in an instant. Mo Shaochen''s eyes were already dark, as if they had condensed the cold light from hell and were ready to devour people at any time. Slowly deflecting his head, Mo Shaochen''s eyes flashed darkly over the tattooed man and those people, and his cold face was filled with a breath of horror. "Shit..." one of the younger brothers spit, "I let you stare today..." he said, and others had clenched their fists and hit Mo Shaochen''s face When the younger brother''s hand was about to hit Mo Shaochen''s face, he raised his hand and wrapped his fist tightly in his palm The younger brother stared and wanted to break free, but found that he couldn''t break free at all. Mo Shaochen''s face was full of dangerous bloodthirsty breath. At that moment, it fell into Shen Chu''s eyes and was full of horror... She had never seen him like this. "Give it to me..." the tattooed man suddenly said, "if you don''t take this woman away today, I''ll have your fucking last name!" His words fell, and the remaining brothers immediately wanted to come forward "What are you doing? What are you doing?" Suddenly, there was a loud roar "Stop it!" "Here comes the police..." I don''t know who shouted. Tattooed men and others looked at it one after another Shen Chu''s face turned white in an instant. She lowered her voice and clenched her teeth and said, "Mo Shaochen, let go! Are you crazy... Let go!" As she spoke, her face became more and more eager. From time to time, she looked at the police coming and Mo Shaochen. A lawyer was taken to the Bureau for fighting in a nightclub... Shen Chu couldn''t imagine the consequences like that. But obviously... It''s no use worrying about her. Including her... Everyone was taken away. "Another meal" home-made restaurant. Fang Xilan brought the last bowl of soup into the box. "Chen Shao, Miss Jane, eat slowly..." she said. She looked at Jian Jie, "what''s not to your taste? I want to talk to my aunt!" Jane Jie said with a smile on her little face, "it''s delicious... It''s better than what mommy makes!" "..." Jian Mo looked at Jian Jie discontentedly! He wants to please him. Why pull her as a cushion? Every time she sells cute in front of others, her son is too cheeky Fang Xilan immediately laughed and then looked at Jian Mo, "it''s nice to have a sweet son!" She smiled and said hello, then left Last time Chen Shao brought this woman, she knew that she had a lot of relationship. She was the child''s mother! After Fang Xilan left, Jian Jie looked at Jian Mo discontentedly and said, "Mommy, it''s impolite of you to stare at me like that... It will make people think you''re very stingy, okay?" "..." Jane Mo grinned. "I''m not good at cooking. If you can do it yourself... I''ll leave the kitchen to you later." Jane Jie shrugged indifferently. "If I do everything by myself, what''s your mommy going to do?" "..." Jane Mo was speechless again. She really wanted to pick up the chopsticks in her hand and pry open the head of the milk bag to see what structure was inside? She owed him in her last life, didn''t she? Only in this life did she have this son to torture her! Gu Beichen closed his thin lips and smiled slightly... He looked at Jian Mo and Jian Jie bickering like this, and suddenly felt that such a life was the beginning. "Unknown daddy," Jian Jie suddenly looked at Gu Beichen and asked seriously, "can you cook?" "..." now Gu Beichen was speechless. Jane Mo smiled, then pursed her lips and said, "yes, special! Let him cook it for you at the weekend..." "Really?" Jian Jie looked at Jian Mo suspiciously. However, because he was eager to feel what other children said about his father''s cooking, he subconsciously wanted to believe it and didn''t see the cunning of Jian Mo''s eyes. Jane Mo secretly gave herself a reminder, and then nodded seriously, "really... I''ve eaten it all, which means that I''m still very unforgettable!" Looking at the urgent light from the bottom of Jian Jie''s eyes, Jian Mo''s heart has turned over with laughter. Gu Beichen can''t laugh or cry... His son''s cheating on his father and mother is entirely due to the inheritance of his son''s mother! Just thinking, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone rings in time. He picked it up and saw that it was a strange number. He couldn''t help frowning slightly and then picked it up, "who is it?" Chapter 266 "It''s me..." Mo Shaochen''s voice came from the other party. "I''m in the south district police station. Come and protect me!" Gu Beichen frowned in an instant and didn''t ask why. He just said, "I''ll be there in a minute!" After that, he already hung up the phone, and then looked at Jian Mo apologetically, "Shaochen is in the police station. I want to go there." Jane Mo frowned slightly surprised. "How did he run to the police station?" Mo Shaochen is a lawyer. It doesn''t look like he went to study the case with the police... So, why did he go to the police station? Gu Beichen shook his head. "I didn''t know until I saw it..." he said. He looked at Xiao Jie. "Are you waiting for me here or should I take you back first?" "Just wait for me and mommy to take a taxi back..." Jane Jie said thoughtfully before Jane Mo spoke, "unknown daddy, let''s do something first!" "..." Jane Mo looked at the milk bag. Why did she think her son''s quick answer was hurting her again? Shouldn''t she be very considerate? Is it really good to compete for favor like this? Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and Jian Jie''s mother and son, and his heart was full of happiness Unfortunately, such happiness sometimes comes too fast, too fast for people to enjoy Gu Beichen left first, and Jian Mo and Jian Jie continued to eat. "Mommy, daddy didn''t take a few bites!" Chien Chieh said. Jane Mo made a "um" sound and didn''t find that Jane Jie changed her mouth. "Then why don''t you go back and make some supper for daddy later?" Jane Jie''s seemingly unintentional suggestion. Jane Mo immediately looked at Jane Jie with a petrified expression, "what did you say?" Jian Jie looked contemptuously at Jian Mo, "I said you''d make some supper for daddy later!" "What do you call Gu Beichen?" Asked Jane Mo, gritting her teeth. "Daddy!" Jane Jie looked serious. "Haven''t you been handled by daddy?" "...." Jane Mo is very depressed. Is her performance so obvious? "Who said I was taken care of?" Jane Mo glanced coldly and proudly, "just put him in the candidate..." "..." Jian Jie looked at Jian Mo with a dark face. "Anyway, I''ll call him daddy... He was my daddy!" "Whatever you want!" Jane shrugged and smiled. After tonight, because Gu Beichen put down all her heart knot... She should enjoy a feeling without any obstacles, shouldn''t she? But... She enjoyed the process. The overbearing president set it, but there was a process of loyal dogs in front of her! The soup you drink into your mouth is as sweet as honey, from your mouth to your heart Jian Jie looked at Jian Mo smiling, turned his small mouth and whispered, "obviously, he has been looking at daddy affectionately all night and competing with me... It seems that he has fallen under the skin of daddy''s thick face. Hum, don''t admit..." "What are you talking about?" Jian Mo looks at Jian Jie. Jane Jie fanned her eyes, said calmly on her small face, "I said Mommy smiles so beautiful!" "You have vision..." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "Otherwise, how can you give birth to the best little male god?" "It seems that daddy and I look alike!" Jane Jie still said calmly. Jane Mo didn''t react at first. When she did, she was so angry that she clenched her teeth, "milk bag, do you mean you are the best little male God because of Gu Beichen?" Jianjie didn''t answer, but his small mouth opened and a proud smile... It was a proud smile that looked like his father! The small box was filled with warm bickering. Gu Beichen drove to the south district police station In the separate interrogation room, Mo Shaochen held a cigarette in his hand and put a touch of bitterness on the corners of his mouth. "You are not afraid to destroy yourself!" The middle-aged policeman opposite shook his head, "you know the law and break the law. Don''t you want your lawyer''s certificate?" Mo Shaochen didn''t speak. He just took a cigarette and calmly bounced the ash into the ashtray. The middle-aged policeman sighed, "I don''t know what to say about you... Fortunately, I''m on duty tonight. Otherwise, even Gu Beichen can''t hold it down." Mo Shaochen still didn''t speak, but his eyes were deep At that time, he was really impulsive, because he saw Shen Chu dancing with the tattooed man, and the man had a reaction... It made him jealous! "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." the middle-aged policeman answered. Someone pushed the door, "Sergeant Wang, Gu Beichen has arrived." Upon hearing this, Sergeant Wang nodded. He first looked at Mo Shaochen, and then got up and went out. Mo Shaochen was alone in the small interrogation room. He smoked slowly, and the smoke gradually spread in the room... Until it floated to the camera in the corner of the roof. The flashing red light was faint but never stopped, showing a touch of treachery. After about half an hour, the door of the interrogation room was pushed open again, and Gu Beichen and Sergeant Wang came in together. "Chen Shao, you can take it away." Superintendent Wang sighed softly, "after all, today''s incident happened in public places. If you want to have no negative impact at all, I''m afraid you have to pay attention." "Thank you, Sergeant Wang!" After Gu Beichen spoke faintly, he looked at Mo Shaochen, and then turned and went out. Mo Shaochen twisted out the unknown cigarette butts in the ashtray, got up, nodded with sergeant Wang and left Until sitting in Gu Beichen''s car, he asked, "where''s Xiaochu?" "Has been bailed out." Gu Beichen narrowed his eyes slightly, and then turned his head to Mo Shaochen. His thin lips were already cold, "I haven''t said anything for more than four years... But, Shaochen, are you going to go on like this?" Mo Shaochen heaved a sigh, "everyone has their persistence..." he said, looking up at Beichen''s eyes, "I have the persistence of Shen Chu, and you have the persistence of Jian Mo!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "If the same thing falls on Jian mo..." Mo Shaochen paused slightly, and then said coldly and slowly, "Gu Beichen, you will kill directly!" "...." Gu Beichen retorted without words. Because if such a situation happens today, he will really kill the tattooed man... He can''t stop responding to Jane Mo''s indecency in public. Looking at Gu Beichen''s appearance, Mo Shaochen sneered at the corners of his mouth, "Shen Chu is still the one I love, even though she is bad in thousands of ways!" Love doesn''t love or not love each other because they are good or bad... He just fell in love with a dark woman, that''s all! Gu Beichen didn''t refute anything, but silently took out his cigarette and lit it I don''t know why. At present, he always has a feeling that he can''t speak out. It''s like that many things are gradually out of control. Chapter 267 At night, the silence shows the strangeness under the dignified In front of Mo Shaochen''s law firm, someone took out the key and opened the law firm. At the right time, the phone rang. "Well, I''ll come and get it now..." there was a trace of anxiety in the woman''s voice. "Wait a minute, eh, OK!" The woman hung up the phone, then hurried to her work cell, turned on the lamp and turned on her desk She has a worried face. The court session will be held tomorrow morning. She unexpectedly left the case information in the office. The woman buried her head in search, and suddenly... I just felt that Yu Guang seemed to have a shadow sliding She suddenly looked up and breathed heavily. Her eyes were alert and scared. Looking around, she saw a static constriction... She couldn''t help but sip her lips and felt a little too nervous. The woman continued to search. When she found it, she breathed out secretly, then turned off the lamp... Locked the door and hurried away. Not long after the woman left, a figure came out slowly behind a big tree next to the law firm He wore a cap with a duck tongue, the brim of which was pressed very low. In the dark, he could vaguely see a cold smile on the corner of his mouth. Drooping his eyes and looking at the paper in his hand... The man''s smile is deeper. A gust of wind blew and made the leaves rustle. The man glanced at the sign of Mo Shaochen law firm and turned to leave Just when the man''s figure disappeared in the dark, the lamp slipped from the corner on the back and finally stopped at the door of the law firm "Need to take you back?" Gu Beichen asked indifferently. Mo Shaochen shook his head. "I''ll be in the law firm tonight. The case with Zixiao will have a second hearing tomorrow afternoon!" After a pause, he asked again, "the relationship between you and Zixiao is a little tense recently?" Gu Beichen looked deeply at the lamp falling out and said faintly, "sometimes... Persistence is a good thing, so people can be firm. But sometimes, the direction deviates... It may not be a good thing." Mo Shaochen frowned slightly, didn''t say anything, just turned and got out of the car. After Gu Beichen watched Mo Shaochen enter the law firm, he turned the car and drove to Runze Park No matter how Yuanda''s business developed in those days, he just wants to protect the people he wants to protect. Thoughts stagnated when waiting for the traffic light. At the right time, the phone rang. Gu Beichen wore Bluetooth and answered the phone, "huh?" "Xiang Nan Yue came out for a drink at the weekend..." Li Yunze asked with a smile. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "can he wake up and drink? Isn''t he dead?" Li Yunze smiled. "There''s no way. He''s so curious about your son... Of course, I''m also very curious. Boss long will come back at the weekend." "My son is not an animal in the zoo..." Gu Beichen said coldly, "it''s not open to visitors!" "No... why do you like being a father? We have to congratulate, don''t we?" Li Yunze said hurriedly. "Say it again!" Gu Beichen said calmly, "hang up!" Without giving Li Yunze a chance to speak, he had already cut off the phone. Li Yunze listened to the "doodle doodle" hanging up sound on the phone, and immediately looked at the phone with gnashing teeth and shouted, "you have a son. You''re great... Jane Mo will marry your son to another man later. I think you''re proud and proud!" He snorted angrily and threw his mobile phone on the table with a look of dissatisfaction. When Gu Beichen returned to Runze garden, Jian Jie was already asleep... Jian Mo was drawing a design on the dining table. "Back?" Jane Mo put down her pen, and the man got up and walked over. Holding Gu Beichen''s waist, he asked, "is mo Bian all right?" Gu Beichen shook his head and told Jane Mo why Jian Mo frowned slightly. Although she didn''t have a particularly good impression of Shen Chu from the first time she saw him, it''s obviously quite unexpected to stay in the nightclub every day... But what''s more surprising is that Mo Shaochen actually likes Shen Chu? "Tut Tut, I found a problem..." Jane Mo suddenly shook her head and sighed. Then she let go of Gu Beichen and looked at him with a disdainful face. It was just like Jane Jie despised her. Gu Beichen looked at her like this and sank his eyes, "what?" Jane Mo smiled, "Gu Beichen, you are either robbing a woman with your cousin or robbing a woman with your nephew..." "..." Gu Beichen suddenly twitched at the corners of his mouth, "can you speak?" Then he walked to the sofa angrily. Seeing that Gu Beichen was unhappy, Jian Mo immediately trotted forward, licked his face and kissed him on the cheek, "OK, OK, I can''t speak... You didn''t rob, I''m willing to... OK?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes slightly picked a wanton radian, "are you willing?" "Yes, I meant it!" Jane Mo didn''t see the dangerous light at the bottom of Gu Beichen''s eyes. Gu Beichen smiled, "Jane Mo, this is what you said..." Jane was stunned. What did she say? Suddenly... Her eyes widened. Why did she dig a hole for herself and jump down? Didn''t her words make it clear that she wanted to follow Gu Beichen? Looking at Jian Mo''s regretful appearance, Gu Beichen smiled The long arm took her into his chest, and Gu Beichen gently rubbed his chin against Jian Mo''s head, "don''t worry, I won''t omit the process of pursuit this time... This is what you should enjoy." Jane Mo smiled happily at the corners of her mouth, "Gu Beichen..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen answered, but with a slight frown, "call ah Chen... Well, or call her husband directly!" "I''m not your wife yet!" Jane Mo said with a proud smile. Gu Beichen sighed, "this definition is a little headache... After all, we are still ''married''!" Jane Mo''s smile deepened, "ah Chen..." she shouted softly. Gu Beichen''s eyes were filled with a smile, "Hmm!" "I''m very happy today..." Jane Mo looked up and her bright eyes twinkled in the light. "You don''t know... How scared I was when I put my hand in your hand." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo painfully and said in a low and hoarse voice, "remember when I asked you... Your first time?" Jane nodded. "At that time, I doubted whether it was you..." Gu Beichen felt that everything was unpredictable and booed. "If you hadn''t lied to me at that time, maybe... We wouldn''t take so many detours." Jane Mo smiled, "but if so... You don''t know what''s the reason for your heart to me!" "Gu Zuoyan, he... Well, he''s smart now." Gu Beichen picked his eyebrows and looked at Jian Mo''s careful machine from his heart. He was very happy. He loves this woman because... She always knows what she wants. Just as... To him! Chapter 268 Since the night six years ago and the divorce four years ago, the two true friends, Beichen, have talked to Jian Mo, and Jian Mo''s life has made a qualitative leap Specifically, when the corners of your mouth are always smiling... And drawing drawings is full of inspiration. Even Jane Jie despised her and said she didn''t know how to be reserved! Jian Mo looked at the architectural design drawing that had been drawn from beginning to end. After seeing that there was no omission, he shouted to come in at night, "little night, pay special attention here when making 3D drawing..." Jian Mo told Xiang night what needed attention, and then said with a smile, "there''s still a week to compare the draft. There''s still time. You and Ding Dang discuss it..." After listening carefully to Xiang night, he nodded, "well, OK! What''s wrong? I''ll come and ask sister Mo again!" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she immediately smiled, "HMM." Xiang night took the design drawing drawn by Jian Mo to find Ding Dang. Just when she came to the door, she suddenly stopped, looked back and asked teasingly, "sister Mo, the flower delivery person and the people who serve tea and afternoon tea... Don''t you consider one?" Although there was no follow-up to the newspaper that day, women had to be protected by a man around them. "The two collected together..." Jane Mo asked with an eyebrow. "What do you think?" Xiang night made a face, "sister Mo, aren''t you afraid of the fire in your backyard? Ha ha..." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she smiled and scolded angrily, and left with the picture in her arms until late. Jian Mo sat on the chair, took out his mobile phone, looked at the storage of "President Gu", and couldn''t help laughing and sending a text message: someone asked me whether it was better to send flowers or tea... It''s difficult to choose! Gu Beichen''s message came back soon: sending flowers is romance, sending tea is life, romance and life are indispensable. How about combining them into one? Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s serious answer and smiled sweetly at the bottom of her eyes... Before she could answer, the text message came in again. President Gu: in the evening, Yunze and they made an appointment to go together, OK? When Jian Mo saw it, she raised her eyebrows and asked: is this... Going to formally introduce me to your brother? President Gu: I want you to come into my life, no matter good or bad. And you? Jane Mo smiled: you have lived in my life, how do you go? Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s text message, and his thin lips gradually caught a smile However, such a smile fell into Susan''s eyes, and she couldn''t help feeling scared. If this man plays cheap, especially the cold and domineering people on weekdays... It''s really not comparable to ordinary people. Night, Paradise night. Because of the presence of Doctor Li Yunze, the hospital turned a blind eye to Lin Nan''s "sneaking out" from the hospital. "I don''t think the third brother will bring his son here today..." Lin Nan shrugged. Unlike him, who was still young four years ago, Lin Nan has faded his anxiety. His skin is a healthy chocolate color. With his capable board inch and heroic spirit brought out from the army, his whole body exudes masculinity that people can''t look at. Li Yunze sighed deeply, "although the eldest brother is warm and confusing, he is also a woman. Beichen is good. Buy one and get one free... All. Pity me and you..." Lin glanced sideways to the south. "No, it''s just you!" "I''ll just ho ho!" Li Yunze didn''t look like a second brother at all. He said sarcastically, "wait until you can handle others?" Lin Nan smiled, "at least I have a goal... You don''t even have a goal!" Brothers are used to lose. Lin Nanan and Li Yunze have always done well... If they lose each other, they usually have no virtue at all. When they were using mutual loss to kill the waiting time, the door of the box was pushed open... Gu Beichen came in with Jian mo. Lin Nanan and Li Yunze''s reaction was to look behind them... But after looking for a long time, Gu Beichen''s door was closed and didn''t see a small figure. "Third brother and third sister-in-law... Your children can''t be invisible, can they?" Lin Nan asked directly. Jian Mo couldn''t help laughing. Gu Beichen just said indifferently, "well, I can lend it to you later and steal enemy information for you!" "Poof..." Lin Nan was choked directly by his saliva. "Don''t introduce, third brother. I''m not risking my life to see you?" "I said, Beichen will not bring..." Li Yunze sighed deeply, also disappointed on his face. "I''m afraid some people look jealous!" Gu Beichen opened his mouth coldly, and his cold face was proud. Jian Mo chuckled from beginning to end. Seeing that the three people had finished their "quarrel", he said, "ah Chen didn''t say before... Today, the students in the milk bag class invited the milk bag to be a guest at home, so we can only do it next time." As soon as Lin Nan heard this, he suddenly looked bitter, "I''m going back to the military area tomorrow..." "It''s not that you don''t come back?" Gu Beichen''s voice has been indifferent, "where''s the Dragon boss?" "On the way..." Li Yunze replied, and then casually gave Gu Beichen a look. Gu Beichen didn''t change his face and didn''t ask. He just asked Jian Mo what to drink? "Tut tut... The third brother has become a loyal dog. I''m really not used to it." Lin Nannan''s army career for more than four years has become very stable. However, when facing Gu Beichen and others, he unconsciously relaxed like a big child, "third sister-in-law, my third brother used to drag more... Now you have to take the price and make my third brother anxious!" Jane Mo nodded seriously, "if it weren''t for you today, I wouldn''t give him this opportunity..." Lu Nanan and Li Yunze immediately laughed, and the box was full of joy. Several people chatted while waiting for the Dragon owl. Lin Nannan was happy to take off. In addition, he was the first to have a good impression of Jian Mo, which was naturally relaxed and pleasant. Li Yunze took advantage of the gap between Lin Nan and Jian Mo to sit next to Gu Beichen, "did the thing that night have a result?" "The direction is to the South..." Gu Beichen said faintly. Li Yunze frowned slightly. "Do you think it was done by different people?" Gu Beichen gently hooked his thin lips and said coldly, "it''s also possible... Is it that some people cooperate happily?" Such light eh made Li Yunze''s eyebrows frown tighter and tighter. He looked at Lin Nannan and didn''t know what to say. He gave the amused Jane Mo a look, and then said in a deep voice: "it''s really annoying to fall like this. I hope your second uncle will be happier." Gu Beichen gently sneered and didn''t speak At the right time, the mobile phone vibrated. Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone and looked at it. Seeing that it was Xiao Jing, he calmly picked it up and put it in his ear, "huh?" "Chen Shao, there''s news about Jian chang..." Chapter 269 Gu Beichen suddenly became familiar with the eagle eyes, "what''s the situation?" Xiao Jing sighed and said, "many people have been tossed around. They said they were sent to be a scapegoat in a political turmoil between the two parties the year before last..." at this point, he paused and said, "people are dead!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips showed a cold look. When Xiao Jing said this, he subconsciously felt that things were strange instead of relieved. "Continue to check..." Gu Beichen''s eyes are deep and bottomless, and his voice is even colder. "I want to be sure!" "I understand." After Xiao Jing answered, after Gu Beichen hung up the phone, he also received the line. "Er Jing, what does Chen Shao say?" The woman in the tank top asked as she was boxing with a man. Xiao Jing looked at Xiao Nan, "Chen Shao feels greasy." "Is Chen Shao too nervous?" Xiao Nan punched the man. Xiao Jing shrugged. "It''s about Miss Jane. It''s good to be careful... Besides, there are enough things about Chen Shao. If Miss Jane comes back, it''s enough chaos." "Ha --" Xiao Nan suddenly shouted loudly. Suddenly, the man hummed and fell to the ground. Xiao Nan turned around, looked at Xiao Jing and said, "there is no direct extension of brother Xiao''s power in Angola. If not, I''ll go there!" Xiao Jing smiled, "elder sister, I''m waiting for you!" He went on happily, and the dogleg took Xiao Nan''s boxing gloves. "If you can go there, it''s best... You know, I can''t live without Chen Shao now." Xiao Nan glared at Xiao Jing, "Oh, just your loyalty." Xiao Jing continues to be playful and smiling. His master has no limit on chasing his wife. As a capable subordinate, how can he get some strength? "Sister, in order to make you willing, I have a super hot video here. I''ll send it to your mobile phone later to make you happy!" Xiao Jing said with a smile, "Chen Shao is absolutely wonderful!" Xiao Nan doesn''t gossip as much as Xiao Jing. However, it''s Gu Beichen''s... I''m still very interested. Xiao Jing here passed the video of the "custody" negotiation that day behind his back. Gu Beichen naturally didn''t know at all. Seeing Lin Nanan and Jian Mo chatting happily, he let them talk. He and Li Yunze said something by the way. "Go back and ask Jin Xi to have dinner with his husband?" Gu Beichen spoke faintly. Li Yunze frowned slightly, "appropriate?" "Can he sit still when the second uncle comes back?" Gu Beichen said coldly, "it''s better for me to find him than let him find him!" "Also......" Li Yunze sighed. "Third sister-in-law..." Lin glanced sideways at Gu Beichen, who said something, and then asked, "why didn''t you tell my third brother when you had a child?" "Yin wrongs Yang..." Jane Mo didn''t explain too deeply. She also saw that Lin Nanan just wanted to start a conversation. Lin looked south at Jian Mo and said, "third sister-in-law, are you going to start again with third brother this time?" "Can''t you see?" Jane Mo smiled and said, "I thought it was obvious!" "Third sister-in-law, I''m going back to the army tomorrow. The army is a distance from Los Angeles, and it''s inconvenient for me to come back..." Lin Nan said seriously, "some things shouldn''t have been said by me, but..." Lin paused to the South and said, "in fact, there''s nothing... I just want to say that you''re with my third brother. No matter what happens in the future, you should trust my third brother. It''s actually very difficult for my third brother to look at the surface scenery!" "That depends on what..." Jane Mo was suddenly angry, but said jokingly. "The back News revealed that if he was caught in bed with any star, I can''t believe it?" Lin Nan was stunned, and then he laughed with no image Because the wound on the chest was not completely good, I didn''t laugh a few times. Suddenly, my chest hurt and my face "brushed" pale. At the sight of Jian Mo, he shouted Li Yunze in a hurry, "come on... Go south to him..." "It''s all right!" Li Yunze just glanced at Lin Nan, "a person who came out of the hail of bullets can only install in front of your third sister-in-law!" Jane Mo frowned and looked at Lin Nan. Didn''t he pretend? "Tut Tut, it''s good to have your sister-in-law care!" Lin Nan said in a greasy voice, as if he were all right for a moment, and directly poured his face on Jian Mo''s shoulder. A cold light of "Shua" suddenly shot at Lin Nanan with a warning. He felt that the third brother''s eyes were really sharp and could kill at any time. Originally, Lin Nan wanted to hold on for a while, but unfortunately... He didn''t hold on. Looking at Lin Nannan who was angry, Jane Mo smiled, and her beautiful eyes were shining at Gu Beichen in the dim light. Gu Beichen was dissatisfied and gave her a warning look. Li Yunze looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, and the corners of his mouth gradually spread a smile... Everything Beichen did four years ago is now the fruit of cultivation. ¡­¡­ In the afternoon, the Dutch sun is particularly abundant, shining on large tracts of colored tulips, just like a natural picture. A man of about 50 is wearing a white baseball cap, polo shirt and beige casual pants, holding a golf club in his hand and preparing to swing At the right time, a golf cart drove over, and a man who looked strong came down with an engineer''s hat, "second uncle!" "Hmm..." Gu murhuai answered and waved. The two men looked at the golf ball flying out in a parabola at the same time. They didn''t converge their eyes until they fell. Gu mohuai threw the club and gloves to the caddie on the side, and then walked to the sun umbrella in front, "what''s the situation over there?" "A little test of the water..." the man with an engineer''s hat put a cold wipe on the corner of his mouth, "the effect is pretty good." Gu muhuai smiled and looked coldly in his sharp eyes, which had been hidden for too many years. "Wait..." he sighed, "I had an accident that time. I waited for four years. I don''t care about this time." Then he sat down in his chair and looked up at the man in the engineering cap standing in front, "can''t you wait?" The man sneered, "how could it... Just like the second uncle said, I''ve been waiting for years. I''m afraid to wait a few more days?" His words fell, and the obvious corner of his mouth overflowed with hate. Gu mohuai converged his sight, drank the water and said, "if you put your mind on Chu Zixiao, it may have unexpected effects." "Good!" The man answered and turned away. The night in Los Angeles has been silent, because they have to go to he Yining''s house to pick up Jian Jie. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo didn''t stay very late But when they left, the Dragon owl didn''t come. Long Xiao just called, and the man returned to the airport halfway... As for why, we all know. There are few people in the world who can make the Dragon owl move... Except Gu Beichen and others, there is only one woman called warm! Chapter 270 Gu Beichen is waiting downstairs for he Yining. Jian Mo goes upstairs to pick up Jian Jie "Please!" Jane Mo smiled and he Yining said, "when I''m busy these days, take my children for a picnic..." "Good!" Why should Ning answer with a smile, then bow his head and say, "one by one, say goodbye to aunt and Xiaojie." Holding he Yining''s legs one by one, she looked at Jian Mo with her eyes fanned and said with a milky voice: "bye, aunt..." then, she looked at Jian Jie and said with a touch of excitement at the bottom of her eyes, "remember what you promised me!" Jian Jie skimmed his lips and was dissatisfied with the one-to-one instructions. "Don''t worry... I promised you I''ll do it." Tut Tut, the milk bag looks like Gu Beichen... It''s completely the future domineering president! Jane Mo smiled and even looked at Jane Jie with different thoughts in her eyes. Her mind was full of "crooked ways", and she missed the opportunity of instinct to find out something from one eyebrow to another. So that, later, I didn''t think of it, which caused the "ups and downs" of some people''s life. At the weekend, Gu Beichen didn''t go to the company to deal with things, but directly handled some documents and held several small video conferences in his study at home. Jian Mo is looking at the 3D renderings made by Xiang Wan and Ding Dang, and then finds some problems Jian Jie is now with Gu Beichen. Except when he works, he is basically tired of being around him. Jian Mo was dissatisfied. Jian Jie''s words "you don''t have enough IQ in the game we play" directly turned her around and didn''t want to talk to the father and son again! "I''ll take a nap. You can spell your IQ well!" Jian Mo gnashed his teeth and stared at Jian Jie fiercely, and then stared at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently raised an arc like nothing. Until Jian Mo entered the bedroom, Jian Jie''s small head said, "Mommy is responsible for beauty like flowers, IQ..." his smile deepened. "Personally, I think she''s better than something else." Jian Jie looked at Gu Beichen. "Daddy is afraid that mommy''s IQ is high. Did he turn back and run away with others?" "..." Gu Beichen was stunned. He couldn''t help crying and laughing, but he said softly, "women are too smart. We will feel very powerless, huh?" It seems that Jian Jie doesn''t understand this, but because Gu Beichen said it, he remembered it in his heart It was not until later, after he experienced it personally, that he really understood that the weakness almost drove him crazy. "Ding Dong!" Just as father and son were playing numbers, the doorbell rang. Gu Beichen and Jian Jie looked at each other, and then... Gu Beichen got up and opened the door. Su Junli is holding a bag of gift box in his hand, with a smile that is always warm and refreshing like spring breeze hanging from the corners of his mouth, and his eyes are soft Gu kechen was surprised when he opened the door again, but Gu kechen seemed to be calm when he saw Su Beichen. "Chen Shao is also there?" Su Jun made a clear noise. Gu Beichen''s cold face was so indifferent, without any expression, "Su San, come to visit?" Su Junli smiled. "I just came back from city a and brought gifts to Momo and Xiaojie..." he paused. He said calmly, "Chen Shao, don''t you invite me in?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes are slightly deep. He has taken care of the people around Jian Mo for more than four years. Although he rejects the opposite sex around Jian Mo, he should be polite. "Uncle away?" Jian Jie''s eyes lit up when he saw Su Jun leaving. "A gift for you and Mommy!" Su Junli handed over the gift bag. Gu Beichen stood there with his hands in his pockets and looked at the tacit interaction between Su Junli and Jian Jie. He said that it was false not to eat flavor... However, Su Junli had been with him for the last four years. Now he can only work harder. "Me and him..." Su Junli looked at Bei Chen, then looked at Jian Jie and said, "there are some things to talk about. It seems that it''s time for you to take a nap." Jian Jie left his mouth, calmly fanned his eyes and said, "I hope for peace..." Su Junli smiled, "nature!" "Let''s talk. I''m taking a nap. Good afternoon!" After Jian Jie finished, Heitong looked at Beichen and turned to the bedroom. When Jane Jie left, the atmosphere in the huge living room became treacherous. The eyes of the two men confronted each other, between lightning and flint, were ready to explode. "Come out and talk!" After Gu Beichen spoke calmly, he turned and went to the balcony on one side first. Su Jun slipped a touch of astringency from the corner of his mouth, then followed him and closed the glass door blocking the living room and balcony. A moment of silence, in the sun became, the atmosphere fell to the freezing point. No one spoke first, as if... The person who spoke first lost. "From the first day Mo Mo lived in Runze garden, I knew... I didn''t have a chance." Su Junli was the first to say, "in fact, after more than four years of company, she hasn''t given me a chance, but I restrained her with a sentence ''let it be." Gu Beichen tilted his head and looked at Su Junli with eagle eyes. "I''m very grateful for the care of these years... But I won''t let Jane Mo be a woman." "I''m really curious..." Su Junli also glanced at Gu Beichen. "You''ve fallen in love with Mo Mo before. Why did you let her stay abroad for so long?" Gu Beichen made a slight self mockery at the corners of his mouth, "too conceited and lack of communication. I didn''t give her a sense of security, and naturally she wouldn''t open her heart to me..." He said, and his eyes fell to the front again. "Such a mistake made me lose the most important moment of her and Xiaojie''s life... And I thought I was retreating for her happiness and happiness." Listening to Gu Beichen''s disappointed tone, Su Junli smiled, but such a smile was too bitter. "It''s said that company is the longest confession..." Su Jun mocked himself and hooked his lower lip, "but if the people around you are not the one you want in your heart, forever company is just company." After a slight pause, he continued, "I''ve been trying to make grandpa accept her, but that''s just one reason why I want to continue... Gu Beichen, I envy you very much because of her..." Su Junli didn''t continue to say. Gu Beichen looked at him with a slight frown and waited for his next words. Su Junli wondered if he should be selfish? But... Gu Beichen can make concessions for Mo Mo''s happiness. Why can''t he? "Gu Beichen, you don''t know..." Su Jun looked up at Gu Beichen and said, "she loves you earlier than you think!" Something was knocking in Gu Beichen''s brain. His eyes looked at Su Junli slightly, as if he didn''t understand what he meant, and he didn''t seem to understand why he told him! Su Junli looked at Gu Beichen, took a deep breath and exhaled, "don''t let her live up to her deep love for you... Another choice, for Mo Mo, it needs more courage than it used to be for you." "I''ll always stand behind her..." Su Jun''s eyes narrowed and his voice was slow, but there was a hidden cold charm. "Once you give her the chance to turn around, Gu Beichen, I won''t give in again!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips shallow hooked a wanton radian, showing indifference, "I......" he saw his thin lips light up, his eyes were familiar with the bottomless low and decisive said, "... I won''t give you such a chance!" Chapter 271 Su Junli smiled, "I hope you do what you say..." he just left a faint sentence, took a deep look at Gu Beichen, and then turned and left. However, at the moment of turning around, the indifference on his face gradually cracked... Concession is not because he doesn''t love, but because he loves that strong woman too much. Her shoulders were so thin, but they provoked the whole world There should be a man who moves her around and take good care of her. The sound of "Ding" came, and the elevator door opened in the sound of "clatter". Su Jun left and went in. His back was lonely and lonely He seems to be a passer-by in Jian Mo''s life, leaving in a hurry and leaving in a hurry... But how does that quiet period of time make him precipitate? There was only one piano and one person in the empty concert hall. Slender jade like fingers wander back and forth madly on the black-and-white keys, and the notes echo in the concert hall as if filled with sad souls. "Dang, Dang, Dang -" Su Jun pressed frantically from his anxious fingers and stressed. When the last strong voice fell, his eyes closed painfully... After more than four years of company, he lost in her heart. There was no him from beginning to end! It is said that there is no first come, first served in love... However, he lost the first chance. If, that year, when she needed a shoulder most, he appeared in front of Mo Mo, wouldn''t it... Everything would be different? Su Jun gradually spilled a touch of shallow self mockery from the corner of his mouth, and that kind of self mockery... Stabbed into his heart and made him feel unprecedented pain. Hands, curled up gradually on the black-and-white keys, and even trembled slightly. Such pain can just be said with Gu Beichen, but... Piled up together, Su Junli knew that he was in a crazy regret at the moment. He can be selfish... Can''t he? From the beginning, he should be selfish Su Jun''s self mockery from the corner of his mouth is getting bigger and bigger. He slowly opens his eyes. His ears are completely because his hands are shaking and the sound of the keys Empty and single, just like his heart at the moment! ¡­¡­ On this day in Los Angeles, the air was completely wet. Before it was time to get off work in the afternoon, it rained intermittently in the air, falling on the windows and winding out distorted watermarks. Ding Dang held a small meeting with Xiang evening and Jian Mo in her office and finalized the final design drawing and 3D effect drawing after minor modifications "Sister Mo, do you know what it was when Dangdang and I made renderings?" Asked Xiang evening. "Huh?" Xiang night put his hands together against his chin, and said with his eyes full of Fantasy: "if the future home is here, it must be very comfortable..." She didn''t flatter, she said it from her heart. Jian Mo''s design starts from the main body to the surrounding facilities, and everything starts from the elements that the current people most pursue... It will be very comfortable to have a home in such a place. Jane Mo looked at Xiangwan and said with a smile, "it''s all right. Let your boyfriend buy it here later..." "Ha ha!" Xiangwan smiled. "I want to... But," she drooped her shoulders, "you have to have a boyfriend as a prerequisite!" Ding Dang and Jian Mo looked at each other and laughed In due time, Jian Mo''s mobile phone rang. Seeing that it was Tang Haoyang''s, he hurriedly picked it up: "director?" "The design department will come to a new designer who is also a UCL graduate. What about your alumni..." Tang Haoyang said with a smile. "President Yu and I can''t go back at this time. Someone will arrive later. You can entertain him first." "Well, good!" Jane Mo didn''t think much. When the phone rang, the elevator outside reached the floor of the architectural design department. Sun Ke came forward, saw a foreigner and asked in standard English, "excuse me, can I help you?" "Jane... Mo..." the foreigner said in broken Chinese. Sun Ke thought he was attracted to Jian Mo''s design, so he couldn''t help laughing, "please go to the reception room first, I..." ¡°Jane£¡¡± Sun Ke''s words were not finished yet. Andy''s blue eyes suddenly brightened. When he saw Jian Mo coming out, he first gave a cry of surprise, and then came forward and hugged Jian Mo in amazement. "Hmm..." Jane Mo couldn''t stand Andy''s enthusiasm. "Andy, let go of me, you''re suffocating me!" Because of the height problem, Jane Mo just went to Andy''s chest and was directly bored by him As soon as Andy listened, he quickly let Jane Mo go, and then panicked to see if she had a problem. When Jian Mo saw her classmates, the corners of her mouth couldn''t help smiling, "Why are you here?" Andy completely ignored the curious eyes of Suke and said, "I''m here to work... Well, I''m one of you!" "..." Jian Mo was stunned at first, and then widened his eyes. "The new designer mentioned by the director is you?" "Yes!" Andy smiled and nodded, then looked at Jane Mo with an ambiguous and enthusiastic face and said, "Jane, are you very moved that I came here for you?" Jane Mo''s uncontrollable corners of her mouth twitched, "if you say that you love design, I will be more moved!" Andy smiled and his whole body exuded the unique charm of the sunshine boy. "But, I really do it for you..." his eyes were bright. "Isn''t there a saying in your China that... Women can''t afford to be entangled and beaten... Well, yes, that''s it! So I''m going to be entangled and beaten!" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, the expression on Andy''s face immediately petrified. ¡­¡­ The atmosphere of the meeting room on the top floor of emperor group is dignified, just like the rainy weather outside. At the opening of European and American stock markets, the share prices of some branches of emperor continued to decline, causing panic. "President, shall I go there?" The general manager said with a dignified face. Gu Beichen didn''t open his mouth. His slender fingers gently tapped on the table, making people''s breathing move with his rhythm Xiao Jing sat on one side, his sight also fell on Gu Beichen, and his face was a little dignified. "Let me think..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep, and Lengjun''s face was so indifferent that people couldn''t see his mind at the moment, "break up the meeting!" After the words fall, Gu Beichen gets up and leaves first. Xiao Jing and Susan hurried out. After entering the office, Xiao Jingfang said solemnly: "I''m afraid someone has controlled the stock market..." they had made preparations before. It''s impossible for the stock market to fluctuate so much. Gu Beichen''s thin lips spilled a touch of coldness, and the ink pupil was already deep. He opened his thin lips and said coldly: "the desperate thing... Has never been his means?" Xiao Jing''s face was gloomy. At the right time, the mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. He took it out and saw that it was Xiao Nan''s and hurriedly picked it up, "sister, what''s the situation?" "The scapegoat is not Jian Heng," Xiao Nan''s voice slowly revealed. "Someone replaced him... After that, all the clues were broken!" Xiao Jing frowned in an instant, then looked at Gu Beichen and said, "Chen Shao, Jane truss has been replaced..." Chapter 272 The detention room of the defense party. Chu Zixiao looked at the party with deep eyes, and then put a pile of data in front of him, "is this true?" The party concerned drooped his eyes suspiciously, raised his handcuffed hands together, flipped the information, and finally looked at Chu Zixiao in surprise, "how did you find these?" He looked horrified as he asked. "You just need to answer me now..." Chu Zixiao''s sight became more and more familiar, "yes, or no!" The party secretly swallowed and nodded Chu Zixiao immediately burst into a sneer at the corners of his mouth. Then he got up after receiving the information. Under the confused and frightened eyes of the party concerned, he turned and left the detention room. The rain outside, pattering, seems to wash everything in the world. Chu Zixiao stood on the corridor, looking at the gloomy weather outside, and gradually tightened up the data in his hand... Because of too much force, the joints of bones made a "quack" sound. With the deepening of the case between him and Mo Shaochen, he found more and more information about the Yujing Lake... Is it God''s will or what? Chu Zixiao''s eyes gradually became familiar with it. On his handsome face, there was a deep hostility that he was unwilling to go down. How can Xiaomo find you with your mobile phone or when Xiaomo is around you? Jane Mo frowned slightly when she received the text message. After thinking about it, she replied to the past: Zixiao, I am responsible for my life! Chu Zixiao looked at the text message replied by Jian Mo, his eyes gradually deepened, but the corners of his mouth hooked a complex radian that people can''t understand Mo Shaochen stood in front of the window of his office and looked at the green and faint leaves outside washed by the rain. His eyes were getting darker and deeper. "Dong Dong!" Mo Shaochen converged his eyes and said, "come in!" Han Yifei opened the door and came in. "Lawyer Mo, the materials are ready..." Mo Shaochen turned around, came forward and took the information and looked at it calmly After the second hearing of the case against Chu Zixiao, there was still no result. Just like the outside world, neither he nor Zixiao could get a good technical means. Now they can only seek a breakthrough from the micro. Han Yifei waited for Mo Shaochen to look at the information, and the corners of his lips moved back and forth. He wanted to ask about some problems related to the emperor he gave him last time But on second thought, it had nothing to do with the case, and Mo Shaochen didn''t ask him later. I don''t think there should be much problem? After all, the emperor is such a big group that it will not involve too much with some small problems in the construction of a community. However, Han Yifei didn''t expect that the information he put on Mo Shaochen''s desk had long been replaced by something of little value Mo Shaochen is collecting all kinds of favorable evidence for his client, but Chu Zixiao''s mind is not on this case at the moment. The car was flying wildly through the rain. The slender hand had already used force to grasp the steering wheel. A pair of eyes were so fierce that they looked at the front with hatred, as if they were going to see a hole in the windshield. "Zhi -" the harsh sound of brakes echoed in the rain, causing people in a hurry to look sideways. Chu Zixiao''s lips tightly held back, slowly turned his head, looked through the blurred car glass beaten by the rain... His sight fell on the copper characters of "Yujing Lake". Hand, grasp the steering wheel and gradually tighten it. Because of too much force, the palm and the leather steering wheel make a ''bare bare'' friction sound. Chu Zixiao''s mouth overflowed with a faint smile that people couldn''t understand. That smile was cold and sarcastic Is he too persistent? But what can he do? One is the lover he has used for so many years and can''t forget, the other is the little uncle he has worshipped since childhood... But what''s the last? The tangled and contradictory emotions tore Chu Zixiao''s emotions. He was weak and lay back on the seat. His vision was even more numb. Under the back and forth sweeping of the wiper, he gradually became lax Chu Zi''s roller coaster didn''t know how long it had been parked by the Yujing lake. The sky gradually darkened and the rain became heavier and heavier. Not far away, a very ordinary black car stopped there. The man driving the car looked at Chu Zixiao''s car, and the corner of his mouth gradually drew a sneering arc, which... Showed the Yin and hostility under the treachery. Jane Mo didn''t expect that it would rain heavily when she got off work. She looked at the rain outside with a sad face and frowned slightly. "Mo Mo, shall I take you back?" Mo Xiaoya came over with a tube containing design drawings in her hand. She knew that Jane Mo had come over on foot recently. Jane Mo is anxious to pick up the milk bag, but she doesn''t want to let the company know for the time being, causing unnecessary trouble In a dilemma, the mobile phone suddenly rang. "Excuse me..." Jane Mo said sorry, then took out her mobile phone and saw that it was Gu Beichen''s. she couldn''t help but pick it up with a smile on her mouth. "Xiao Jie, I asked Susan to pick it up..." Gu Beichen''s soft and low voice came from his mobile phone. "Wait, she''ll pick you up by the way. You wait a minute, huh?" Jane Mo''s heart was warm for a moment, "I''m worried!" Gu Beichen smiled at his thin lips and said, "there are some things I can''t finish at the company. I don''t think I''ll go back tonight..." after a pause, he continued, "maybe I''ll go abroad tomorrow." Jian Mo is used to Gu Beichen''s busyness. After all... When he was married, he had to fly abroad or home from time to time. "Well..." Jane Mo just answered, because she couldn''t say anything with Mo Xiaoya nearby. "Remember to miss me!" Gu Beichen said, "I''ll miss you too..." The sound of happiness filled the corners of Jane''s mouth again. Gu Beichen knew that it was not convenient for her to speak, so he didn''t say anything more. After giving an explanation, he hung up the phone. "Tut Tut, at first glance... I don''t have to take this free ride." Mo Xiaoya shook her head, pretended to be very hurt, said that, said hello to Jane Mo and went downstairs. Jane Mo quickly packed up her things and went downstairs to wait Before Susan''s car, I saw Andy come out of the building. "Didn''t you go to the house Mr. Yu found for you?" Jane Mo looked at Andy suspiciously. Andy smiled and said, "I''m waiting for you to get off work. Did you say that if I came to your city, you would invite me to dinner!" "..." Jane Mo was a little embarrassed, "but now I''m going to pick up my son. Is weekend OK?" "I haven''t seen little Jemi for a long time. Let''s have dinner together!" Andy didn''t understand Jane Mo''s gentle refusal at all. Jane Mo fue is a little weak about the language and cultural differences between foreigners and Chinese. Just thinking about how to make Andy understand that she was refusing at the moment, Andy suddenly grabbed her hand, "come on, the traffic here is so blocked. Wait, little Jemi is in a hurry." "Hello..." Jane Mo was directly pulled by Andy and ran outside. Seeing that it was going to attack in the rain, she said quickly, "it''s wet later, Andy!" Andy turned back to her and grinned and fell out his big white teeth. "We want to enjoy nature... These are all given to us by nature!" "..." Jane Mo rolled her eyes and was about to drag Andy back when a black car stopped beside them. The door was opened, and a large black umbrella was stretched out and opened. Then, it was black leather shoes that drove the slender legs down... And got out of the car with a tall body. Jane Mo fanned her eyes slightly. Because of the rain, her hair and clothes on her shoulders were a little wet. Before she reflected it, the umbrella had already hit her. At the right time... A low voice came. "Are you cheating?" Chapter 273 Just now, because there was a big umbrella, Jane Mo didn''t see who was under the umbrella However, when the low and dangerous voice came, she suddenly raised her eyes and looked... Just right at Gu Beichen''s deep and invisible eyes. "Didn''t you say Susan came?" There was a touch of surprise in Jane Mo''s eyes. Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised an incomprehensible radian in his heart, "if I don''t come, how can I see..." as he said, his eyes dropped slightly and just landed where Andy held Jian Mo''s hand, "... You carried me and other men behind your back... Huh?" Gu Beichen didn''t say everything, but he said softly. Jane Mo immediately felt pressure in her heart and subconsciously explained, "you can''t blame me, I''m also forced..." "Oh?" Gu Beichen whispered again, his voice enchanting and deep. Just one word, Jane Mo felt that she had difficulty breathing Andy was curious to see who the umbrella holder was, but he missed his sight several times and couldn''t see it. ¡°Jane£¿¡± Andy said softly. He was a little worried because he couldn''t understand Chinese. Jian Mo was called back suddenly. Seeing Gu Beichen''s cold and carved face covered with haze, he slightly picked his chin, "I''m single now and enjoy the right to be pursued... Cheating? Your words are serious!" Looking at Jian Mo''s smiling face, Gu Beichen''s face was suddenly cold, "like getting wet in the rain?" With a faint sigh, his sight was already in danger. Jian Mo''s heart "cluttered" and looked at Gu Beichen with vigilance. "Or..." Gu Beichen leaned over slightly, and his thin lips deliberately slipped over Jian Mo''s cheek. When he felt her horror, he whispered the second half of the sentence in her ear, "... I''ll accompany you?" "..." Jane Mo immediately widened her eyes and hurriedly said, "no, I don''t abuse myself." Are you kidding? Let Gu Beichen accompany her in the rain. How she wants to make headlines? Gu Beichen scratched a smile on his thin lips. That smile was dangerous and evil... But Jian Mo didn''t see it. Jane Mo quickly broke away from Andy''s hand, and then looked sorry. "I... um," she thought for a while, but said, "my boyfriend came to pick me up. It seems... I can''t enjoy nature with you." Andy suddenly got hurt on his face, "boyfriend?" He gave a voice of surprise and lowered his head to find out who it was. Unfortunately, Jane Mo didn''t give him this opportunity and hurriedly said, "see you tomorrow..." she paused, "Oh, welcome to Xiangyu, bye!" After that, Jane Mo has dragged Gu Beichen into the car. On the bus, Xiao Jing smiled at the corners of his mouth. He first looked at Gu Beichen with low pressure, and then said hello to Jane Mo: "Hello, Miss Jane." "Good!" Jane Mo closes the car door. She looks through the car glass at Andy standing in the rain with an injured face and holding the position of her heart. She can''t help feeling a little sorry. Xiao Jing looked at Beichen again. His cold face was already cloudy and darker than the weather outside. He couldn''t help praying for Jian mo. When the car started, Xiao Jing drove all the way to Runze park. Jian Mo saw that Gu Beichen ignored her, and his face was still cold. He couldn''t help flattering and asked with a smile, "didn''t you say that I would be very busy today? I''m going to go home to cook and deliver rice to you with the milk bag!" Gu Beichen didn''t speak or even look at Jian mo. Jane Mo grinned secretly. Regardless of the wet hair on her hair, she rubbed it in front of Gu Beichen Gu Beichen didn''t move and didn''t even give Jane a look. Jane Mo secretly feigned, and then smiled and asked, "where''s the milk bag? Did Susan pick it up?" Gu Beichen still ignored. Jane Mo scolded secretly, then released him, sat on the other side, looked out of the window... She was in a bad mood for a moment. Xiao Jing looked in the rearview mirror and left the corners of his mouth lightly... Chen Shao, is this the rhythm of death again? Just thinking about it, Gu Beichen slowly said, "how could he be here?" Jane Mo''s mouth slightly aroused a proud smile, but Gu Beichen couldn''t see it because she tilted her head to look outside the car. Hum, aren''t you cold to the end? Why not? Seeing Jian Mo didn''t answer, Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes moved and sighed, "I''m going abroad tomorrow. There''s a pile of things I haven''t done... Mo''er, I just want to see you." When she turned around, she smiled proudly at the corner of her mouth. Seeing her like this, Gu Beichen''s thin lips hooked a shallow smile, "don''t stretch?" Listening to his light voice, Jane Mo knew she had been fooled again "Gu Beichen!" Jane Mo gnashed her teeth and turned her face angrily. She didn''t intend to ignore the man who could fool herself even in a "quarrel". Gu Beichen chuckled and took Jian Mo''s hand and gently rubbed it in the palm His palm was slightly thick, but it was filled with warm air. He wrapped Jian Mo''s hand in it, just right. Car, turn into the parking lot of runzeyuan in time. "I''m really busy..." Gu Beichen youyou said, "I just want to see you, so... I''ll pick you up." She didn''t know how much he missed her when he called her and heard her voice. Jane Mo turns around and looks at Gu Beichen again. His eyes still fall on the hand she was pulled by Andy before "You are so beautiful, so many men peep forward and backward..." Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at Jian Mo, "what can I do to tie you around?" Jian Mo''s thoughts, captured by Gu Beichen''s deep eyes, suddenly stagnated. He asked, and her heartbeat became inexplicably frenzied. Car, stop at the parking space. Xiao Jing feels that he is not getting off now, nor is he getting off now It''s embarrassing not to get off, but... You can''t hear gossip when you get off? Xiao Jing is very tangled, but finally gets off the bus... He can''t promise not to get off the bus. How will Chen Shao deal with him later. Xiao Jing looked at the two people in the back seat from the rearview mirror, and then got out of the car. "Mo''er..." at the moment when the door was closed, Gu Beichen shouted softly and deeply. His mellow voice was dark and dumb, "I need many days to come back." "Yes." Jane Mo answered, because Gu Beichen was disappointed in his tone, and his heart was full of time and space. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and pulled her into his arms. His voice became more and more low and said, "things are a little tricky. I don''t know how long to deal with..." after a pause, he continued, "can you promise me something?" "Huh?" Jane Mo said softly. Listening to Gu Beichen''s strong heartbeat, she felt a little uneasy. Gu Beichen put his chin on the top of Jian Mo''s slightly wet hair, gently smelled her body fragrance, and slowly opened his mouth: "no matter what happens, wait until I come back to solve..." Jane Mo frowned and didn''t understand Gu Beichen''s words. How does it feel... As if something must happen? Chapter 274 "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen could not help but frown and shout before Jian Mo''s answer. "Good!" Jane Mo''s mouth spread a faint smile, "no matter what happened, I''ll wait for you to come back." Gu Beichen''s heart was slightly put down at this moment, but more worries spread. He was afraid that... His departure would make something out of control. Feeling Gu Beichen''s rare uneasiness, Jane Mo gently raised her face and dropped a warm kiss on his Adam''s apple, "except being pursued, I''ll wait for you to come back..." At the moment, the voice was as stiff as a joke. Gu Beichen looked down at Jian Mo and was very hot when he looked at her. But I don''t know whether it''s because of Jane Mo''s teasing kiss on his Adam''s apple or her words. Handsome face bent down... Kiss, like a storm, as if to devour Jane foam. Jian Mo enthusiastically responded to Gu Beichen''s kiss. For the two people who had just opened their hearts and completely accommodated each other... The short separation suddenly became a situation they had missed before they separated. Xiao Jing supported the post behind him with his legs and looked down at the mobile phone... His face was gone. The banter in his heart just wanted to find out the gossip in the car was a little more dignified. Jane truss''s track was suddenly complicated and confusing, which made people feel like a stone, adding to the blockage. If he had been pulled to be a scapegoat, who would have replaced him without any background? After thinking about it, Xiao Jing finally took back his mobile phone, his eyes fell in front, and his eyes narrowed slightly I don''t know how long she kissed. Gu Beichen didn''t let go of Jian Mo until she felt she was suffocating. Looking at her face reddened, Gu Beichen held Jian Mo in his arms again, but said, "wait for me to come back..." Gu Beichen left. Finally, he didn''t go upstairs... Just, before leaving, he was busy and wanted to see Jian mo. The air conditioner in the conference room was turned on a little low. Yu Ziyun talked about the emperor''s draft comparison on Friday. Now, Xiangyu and Andy have three people who came back from UCL. It can be said that they have been in the limelight in Los Angeles these two days. Jian Mo''s thoughts are a little wandering. Gu Beichen has been away for three days. Every day, two people will send text messages and make phone calls, but... Miss is not reduced, but deeper and deeper. Andy''s blue eyes looked at Jian Mo opposite, and he felt a little aggrieved under forbearance. Isn''t Jane with that pianist? Why is her boyfriend someone else? Andy curled his lips and felt that there were more and more obstacles to chasing Jane "If there''s no problem, Jane, I wish you success!" Yu Ziyun finally said with a smile, "Xiaojing and I will get married next week and wait for your gift." Jane Mo received her free thoughts and confidently raised her eyebrows, "go all out." Yu Ziyun laughed. Suddenly, applause came from the conference room. Friday. Due to the participation of Jian Mo and the remarkable characteristics of the emperor of God itself, early in the morning, the financial news has opened the prelude to the comparison draft of the architectural design tender Unlike four years ago, Xiang night is obviously much more stable this time, but he is still nervous. Jane Mo sat calmly behind the long table in the conference room. She didn''t know whether it was a coincidence or something. She was the last one this time. While listening to the explanation of their design ideas one by one, Jian Mo''s thoughts were gradually pulled back to the comparison draft of the emperor''s club. When did Gu Beichen fall in love with her? The result of that comparison... Is it really a divorce gift he gave her? Jane Mo began to doubt At that time, she didn''t think much, but when the results came out that day, she called Gu Beichen... The phone was clearly connected, but no one spoke. Now, there seems to be something wrong? Jane Mo was thinking. Suddenly, she was pulled down her sleeve by Ding Dang. She looked at Ding Dang subconsciously, and what caught her eyes was the consternation and surprise on her face. "Mo Mo, you see..." Ding Dang''s voice was a little frozen and whispered, and his face became bad. Jian Mo frowned slightly and looked down Ding Dang''s line of sight at the 3D rendering of the company explaining his design concept. It was just a glance. Suddenly... The pupil widened. Xiang night''s face also became anxious. Her breathing was too short to help herself. She could only look at Jian mo Jian Mo listened to the man confidently explain his design, until finally, he looked at Shang Junhao and said: "our company''s design purpose is to take home as the starting point and hope to make people warm again in the high-end community. Thank you!" When applause came, some people were happy and others were sad. Jane Mo didn''t move, but her face became bad Her eyes fell on the designer who came to the opposite side and sat down, with anger in her eyes. The designer frowned at Jian Mo, then nodded politely and sat down calmly. Jane Mo''s hand holding the pen was slightly clenched. She looked at the designer and her breath became heavier and heavier. If... The last design hit the idea, what about this time? Can''t her design keep bumping into other people''s ideas? And... Why is it the emperor''s project every time? Questions slipped from my mind, and Jane Mo''s lips gradually tightened up Another company has completed its own design explanation, and today is the last company to compare the draft... Xiangyu. Shang Junhao hoped that Jian Mo would surprise him. When he looked at her, there was an urgent in his eyes, "let''s invite Xiangyu''s designers!" Ding Dang and Xiang night both looked at Jian mo. at this moment, everyone was already at sixes and sevens. Jane Mo clenched her hand, with that company in the front... Now, her design has become a waste product that can''t be taken out. Everyone''s attention falls on Jian mo. here, there are two companies that participated in the design of the emperor Club... It''s false to say that Jian Mo was not curious about the last temporary change of design. However, because of the statement issued by the emperor, no one will lose his job and future because of curiosity... Naturally, no one said. However, when you see the new design, you don''t think much... After all, it''s really better. When Jian Mo came back from UCL this time, everyone was curious about her design Jane Mo didn''t move, but her hands were tighter and tighter. Shang Junhao thought she didn''t hear it and said, "let''s invite Xiangyu''s designer..." Dingdang and Xiangwan''s faces are already bitter and bitter like balsam pear. After they look at each other, they look at Jian Mo again. Jian Mo stood up. When everyone was looking forward to it, he secretly bit his teeth, looked at Shang Junhao and said, "Xiangyu abstained!" Chapter 275 The sound of "wow" came one after another in the conference room. Shang Junhao frowned and looked at Jian Mo sharply. "Sorry, I didn''t hear you just now?" Shang Junhao asked again, with a warning in his eyes. Jane Mo clenched her hand and said again, "Xiangyu abstained!" The voice of whispering has come, as if everyone expected Jane too much, so that she was too shocked when she said she abstained "Pa", Shang Junhao threw the evaluation folder in his hand onto the conference table and said coldly, "do you Xiangyu think this is a vegetable market? Come in if you want to come in, and quit if you want to exit?" Jian Mo''s heart was heavy at the moment, but he still said: "I''m sorry for such a decision, but with a responsible attitude, Xiangyu can only regret to quit." "Is this your responsible attitude?" Shang Junhao directly snorted coldly, "our emperor''s door can''t accommodate your Xiangyu people... Later, the emperor''s project, I think... Xiangyu doesn''t have to participate." He hummed again, took the rating clip and turned around, "that''s all for today, and the results will be announced next week." At the same time, Shang Junhao opened the door of the conference room and closed it with a bang. People from other families left one after another, and everyone''s eyes fell on Jian mo before they left... There was ridicule, contempt and even disdain. "Sister mo..." Xiang was so anxious that she was about to cry. Ding Dang was so angry that his chest rose and fell, "how could this happen?" Jane Mo took a deep breath hard, then gritted her teeth and said, "go back first..." Once she recognized it, but twice, she didn''t believe it and it was impossible! Now the only possibility is that her design has been leaked However, because of confidentiality, from beginning to end, only she, Xiangwan and Dingdang know. The two of them also know the confidentiality of the design drawing, so it is naturally impossible to make such a mistake. When the three of them returned to the company, they found the atmosphere dignified. When people in the architectural design department heard that Jian Mo and others had returned, they went out of the office one after another and looked at her suspiciously... Some were concerned, some had complex vision, and some had a sneer in their mouth. For those who later entered Xiangyu, Jane Mo didn''t have much contact. She wasn''t surprised that they would have such an expression. "Jane, what''s going on?" Andy asked worried about Jane Mo, "someone said you quit the comparison draft? Why?" At the moment, Jane Mo can''t answer why, but after a slight gesture with Mo Xiaoya and others, she turns to find Tang Haoyang "What''s going on?" Sun Ke and others quietly asked Ding Dang. Ding Dang frowned and pursed his lips, but didn''t speak... She didn''t know what to say when such a thing happened. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen listened to Susan''s report and frowned slightly, "she abstained?" He asked uncertainly. "Yes!" Susan said, "I don''t know the specific reason. Anyway, I abstained in the end and didn''t explain anything." Gu Beichen''s eyebrows frowned tighter. If there was no accident, Jian Mo''s temperament could not be so capricious The most important thing is that she came back confident this time for this project. How can she abstain for no reason? "Chen Shao, do you need to know?" Asked Susan. "No need..." Gu Beichen said faintly, "the things here are almost done. I''ll go back to China later." Susan was surprised, but she answered, "OK, I see." Gu Beichen hung up the phone, and the eagle''s eyes fell deeply out of the window. After a while, he sent a text message to Jian mo. President Gu: wait for me to come back! Just four words made Jian Mo''s nose sour in an instant Today''s events, although unexpected, have taken people by surprise. Even now, there are rumors and rumors both inside and outside the company. How much everyone expects Jian Mo''s return, how crazy the public opinion is at the moment. Jane Mo pursed her lips and sent back a text message to Gu Beichen: I''ve been waiting for you! Gu Beichen looked at these strong words, and the ink pupil became deep and bottomless Timely, the mobile phone vibrated again, and he calmly opened the text message. Mo''er: I''ll solve this by myself. Don''t rush back for me... Ah Chen, I don''t want to hide behind you. Looking at Jian Mo''s text message, Gu Beichen''s heart softened in an instant... This is the woman he loves. She sometimes plays tricks, but most of the time, she is confident and strong. Thin lips edge son hooked to wipe thin smile, Gu Beichen slender fingers across the screen, a text message back to the past: I''m behind you, tired... Lean back directly! Nothing can compare with your lover to rely on you. Jian Mo feels... All the grievances and anger today, because Gu Beichen''s sentence "tired, lean back directly" dissipated the impact. "Girl, who do you think did it?" Li Xiaoyue cut the fruit out and sat down next to Jian mo. Jane Mo shook her head. In fact... Now everyone is suspicious, including herself. Director Yu Zong thinks that nine times out of ten it is an internal matter of the company. "Mommy," said Jane Jie calmly, looking at Jane Mo, "in fact, what I want to know is... Why does the other company explain the design in front of you?" Jane Mo was stunned and looked at Jane Jie for a while. Just then she fanned her eyes and asked subconsciously, "yes... Why?" "Two reasons!" Jian Jie raised his small hand and compared it with a scissors hand. "First, there are problems in daddy''s company. Second, the other party has made two hands ready. If you are in front of him, he will use his own design." Jane Mo listened to Jane Jie''s analysis and couldn''t help frowning. She recalled the situation when she compared the draft today... The designer of the other company was calm and calm when she looked at him in surprise. What does that mean? It''s very possible to say with the milk bag that there is a problem with the person in charge of the lottery! But... Why? Just want to see her make a fool of herself? The night is silent. However, the news about Xiangyu''s abstention is still spreading, and the Internet even divides Jian Mo''s willfulness into two factions this time. Some people say that those who challenge the emperor like this are Xiangyu and Jian mo. they are simply handsome. But most of them say that Jian Mo is arrogant... Xiangyu, this is the rhythm of looking for death and other blocking. But no matter what they say, there is no doubt that Xiangyu and Jian Mo''s "reputation" in Los Angeles is gradually growing. "I don''t understand. What''s your purpose?" The woman grabbed the red wine in her hand and looked at the back of the man standing in front of the French window, "just to make Jane Mo lose face?" The man lowered his eyes and smiled at the corners of his mouth. "Gu Beichen likes her, doesn''t he?" The woman frowned as if she didn''t understand the man''s words. "Instead of attacking Gu Beichen by other means," the smile on the corner of the man''s mouth became deeper and deeper, but the stiffness didn''t spread there. "It''s better to use the woman he cares about... Maybe, you''ll get unexpected results." Chapter 276 Gu Beichen originally planned to go back, but finally gave up because of Jian Mo''s words... She said she could, and he should give her space, shouldn''t he? Jane spent a weekend in the bombing of the media But she didn''t go to the news. As a small agent who has been looking at mommy for her father since she was a child, Jian Jie naturally wants to help Gu Beichen, who is not around, so that Jian Mo has no time to face those messy things. At the weekend, Jian Mo passed under the "intimate" of Jian Jie. The advent of a new week is destined to be an eventful week. About Jane Mo''s abstention, the company has been brainwashed by all kinds of speculation in the media after a weekend. Except those in the previous design department, everyone looked at Jian Mo with strange eyes Jane Mo ignored it and continued to do her own things, as if nothing had happened. "The emperor''s business is over. I don''t want to hear anything inside." At the morning meeting on Monday, Yu Ziyun said calmly, "at the weekend, I took over a project of the art center." then he looked at Jian Mo, "Jian Mo, you and Andy are in charge!" Everyone''s eyes looked at Jian Mo uncontrollably. Everyone was obviously surprised... Jian Mo made such a thing, and Yu Ziyun handed over such a big project to her directly? "Good!" Jane Mo answered calmly and completely ignored everyone''s eyes. Under all kinds of thoughts, Yu Ziyun explained a few words and announced the adjournment of the meeting. For today''s meeting, Andy is the happiest. Gu Beichen, who came to China with Jian Mo, kissed the skin in her ear while conquering Jian Mo, and asked in a low and magnetic voice: "Mo''er, you are the only one in my heart... Do you know?" "Yes!" Jane Mo''s emotional reason. "I love you, you know?" "Well..." Gu Beichen asked one by one. Jian Mo''s body and mind sank because of Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was as deep as the sea, and his voice was becoming more and more depressed. Just as a touch of evil and dangerous light slipped through the bottom of his eyes, his thin lips gently asked, "shall we make public...?" Jane Mo''s brain was already in a mess, but she instinctively replied, "HMM..." Gu Beichen''s smile spread around his mouth Chapter 277 No matter the night is beautiful or ugly, it will pass. When the fish belly appears in the East, a new day begins The news of Jian Mo''s withdrawal from the emperor''s comparison is still spreading. There are good dramas, and naturally many people are concerned. Su Junli inquired about the situation, and Jian Mo didn''t hide it. She has always been sincere to her concerned friends. There are still all kinds of rumors about Jian Mo in the company, and Jian Mo ignored them... She could stand the eyes of all kinds of people four years ago. Can''t she stand it after four years? Day by day. Jian Mo and Andy discussed about the art center. A week passed quickly... Besides, Gu Beichen is around every day. She feels particularly satisfied with such a dull and warm life. "Milk bag, I''m going to the wedding tomorrow. Are you OK alone?" Asked Jane Mo, putting the cake in the oven. ¡°OK£¡¡± Jian Jie answered, then looked at Gu Beichen and said, "Daddy will work at home tomorrow." As soon as Jane Mo heard it, she answered and didn''t doubt anything. However, after Jane Jie and Gu Beichen gave each other a look, they clapped their hands again and whispered, "happy cooperation!" The next day, it was sunny. Yu Ziyun and Luo Xiaojing are both prominent figures in Los Angeles. Their marriage today has attracted a lot of media attention. They are also generous people. Besides, they have free publicity. As a qualified businessman, they will never let go The wedding is open and held in Yu Ziyun''s villa. People from both companies and business friends, men and women in suits and gowns are everywhere by the garden and swimming pool. "Mo Mo, here..." Mo Xiaoya saw Jian Mo come in and raised her hand. Jane Mo wore a dress wrapped around her chest and falling to the ground. She only wore a clavicle chain on her slender neck. Coupled with her beautiful curly short hair, the whole person was filled with self-confidence. The media with sharp eyes have raised the camera to shoot at Jian mo. Jian Mo ignored it and just walked quietly to Mo Xiaoya. The wedding still has more than half an hour to start. Everyone is just chatting together Naturally, the emergence of Jian Mo has become the object of whispering by many people. "Don''t think too much about others." Mo Xiaoya and Jane Mo said as they took the meal. Jane Mo smiled, "it doesn''t matter. I haven''t been talked less before." Mo Xiaoya looked at her and sighed, "I said, do you want to go back to the temple to worship? You''re too mean..." Jane Mo smiled and blinked. "It''s all right. Yu can always trust me better than anything." Speaking of Yu Ziyun, Mo Xiaoya agrees with Jian Mo''s words... In fact, many of their old employees don''t want to leave later, all because they have a good boss. Work is everywhere, but there is a comfortable environment. Even if there is less money, it is happy... Besides, Yu Ziyun is not a stingy person. Mo Xiaoya and Jian Mo chatted while eating. One after another, the people from the design department arrived. Everyone got together and chatted. Xiang night and mu Xiaoran came up with ideas about how to deal with Yu Ziyun and Luo Xiaojing later. Everyone listened to their "damaging" moves and smiled one by one. "I don''t understand. How can there be such a cheeky woman in this world?" Several women from other departments of Xiangyu gathered together and glanced at Jian Mo one by one. "Seriously, she has nothing to do with president Yu. Why don''t I believe it?" "Yes, even if you give her such good conditions to study in UCL... There''s nothing to do when she comes back, and she still challenges the emperor. In this way, president Yu still gives her a new project..." "In fact, I especially want to know whether those people in the design department have a good relationship with her. Is it good or false?" "I guess it''s all fake..." "I think so! Who isn''t jealous?" "I can''t stand it..." The disdain and disdain of several women one by one, and even the jealousy in their eyes spread out. Jane Mo ignored those messy eyes and chatted with Da Xiong and Mo Xiaoya, waiting for the wedding to begin. "Thank you for coming to Mr. Yu and Mr. Luo''s wedding..." at the right time, the master of ceremonies smiled on the stage and said to the microphone. We all know that the wedding is about to begin. Both guests and the media are walking to the rostrum "Go, go..." Da Xiong motioned to everyone, then put down the plate and took the lead in lifting the step. Jian Mo and others also put down their things one after another with a smile and moved closer to the rostrum. There was urgency in each eye... I want to see if yu Ziyun, who is evil and evil in ordinary days, will be nervous today. Several people talked and laughed forward, as if they didn''t pay attention. The women behind them exchanged a wink, and then pretended to follow up inadvertently. Suddenly Jane Mo only felt that she had been caught by something. Because of inertia, her body immediately couldn''t control and fell forward At the same time, someone exclaimed, "sorry, sorry..." The woman seemed to panic and hurriedly raised her feet on the train of Jane mo Jane Mo could have held on, but because she suddenly raised her foot, she completely lost her balance and fell down without holding the momentum. "Sister Mo......" Mu Xiaoran was beside Jian Mo, and she subconsciously went to catch it, but she just missed it and didn''t catch it. Because of the surprised cry, everyone instinctively followed the sound... One by one, they couldn''t help staring. Seeing that Jianmo was about to fall gorgeous, suddenly... Jianmo poured into a strong arm. The familiar breath filled the nostrils in an instant. Before Jian Mo had time to think seriously, a low and magnetic voice came from her ear. Only she could hear: "am I... A hero to save the United States?" At the same time, Jane Mo has been helped up. Everyone was stunned to forget the reaction and stared at it one by one Jian Mo smiled and looked at Gu Beichen. There was a doubt in her eyes. However, at the moment of falling... Because of his appearance, her nervous mood calmed down instantly. He said... He was always behind her and leaned directly when he was tired. Is this the first practice? "How did Chen Shao come?" Some media have been stunned and don''t know how to respond. "Yu Ziyun and Luo Xiaojing have too much face?" "Yes... Chen Shao basically doesn''t attend such an occasion!" With that, the media reacted and hurriedly held up the camera and began to press wildly Even, some people have run over, and all kinds of people want to interview Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen looked away from Jian Mo''s face. When he glanced over the woman who had just stepped on Jian Mo''s skirt, he suddenly understood it, but it was only an instant. He resumed his indifference and said to the media: "the wedding will begin immediately. Please don''t be indiscriminate!" Chapter 278 The emcee suddenly woke up from shock and hurriedly pulled everyone''s thoughts back to the wedding scene However, whether the media or the guests present, one by one involuntarily looked at Gu Beichen and had doubts in their hearts. Jane Mo doesn''t know why Gu Beichen appears here. It''s obviously unreasonable to say it''s for president Yu... But it doesn''t seem right to say it''s for her. The wedding march echoed in the villa, and everyone''s attention fell on the admission of Yu Ziyun and Luo Xiaojing under various speculations. Because they came out of the villa, they didn''t know Gu Beichen was coming... When they passed by him, they were surprised one after another. The wedding passed in the blessing of the people and the surprise of Gu Beichen''s sudden arrival. Because it was an open wedding, Yu Ziyun and Luo Xiaojing were even polite after exchanging rings. "President Gu''s arrival flattered Xiaojing and me." Yu Ziyun and Luo Xiaojing took the lead in greeting Gu Beichen. There were business people on the scene, one by one, hoping to have a relationship with Gu Beichen. The media is even more excited... It''s impossible to interview Gu Beichen on weekdays, especially in the past four years, he doesn''t even have an affair. We will not miss such an opportunity. The men at the scene looked at Gu Beichen one by one and didn''t understand... Why is the gap between people so large? Compared with men''s single thought, women, whether married or not, seem to be suddenly uncomfortable. Looking around... They are "generous and decent" to show themselves, so they almost rush into Gu Beichen''s arms. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and grinned secretly... Attract bees and butterflies! Hum! "Ah... I can see Chen Shao from such a close distance. I''m perfect today." Xiang night looked crazy, "I really want to fall down at that time!" Jane Mo looked at xiangnight with some tears and laughter, and then looked coldly at Duni who stepped on her skirt, "it''s all right, you can let some people step on you!" "Ah?" Xiangwan didn''t react. He looked at Jian Mo foolishly. "Jane Mo, what do you mean?" Dunny stared. Jane Mo said calmly, "what do you think I mean, I just mean." "You mean I did it on purpose, don''t you?" Dunny has gnawed her teeth. "That''s what you said, not what I said... Isn''t it?" Jane Mo sneered. "I was just careless. You think so... Your mind is too dirty?" Duni stared wide, and didn''t know if it was to attract the attention of some people. Her voice grew up. "Jane Mo, you''re too much." Xiang night understood, "Duni, you deliberately stepped on sister Mo, aren''t you too much?" "In the evening, which eye of yours saw the Jane foam I stepped on?" Duni immediately straightened her chest and raised her chin to look at the evening. In that way, she almost felt like she wanted to shock the Qi field with a chest instrument. "What a pity..." said Jane Mo coldly. "I don''t have eyes behind me, otherwise I can enjoy the expression of your retarded behavior." Duni also sneered, "Jane Mo, if you want to make a difference, did I just be careless... Fair and free." "Yes, who is so boring and deliberately steps on you?" "Besides, Nini apologized to you at that time..." Several women together with Duni looked at Jane Mo with disdain on their faces, and then "helped" Duni speak one by one. Andy frowned. He was completely out of shape for their conversation. He just looked at his face and felt bad... He wanted to ask what happened, but he couldn''t find a chance. Mo Xiaoya and others immediately sneered. When they were about to speak, a low voice came coldly "She doesn''t have eyes behind her, but I can see clearly as the eyes behind her!" Gu Beichen walked over coldly. Suddenly, the eyes of Duni and others brightened... Her mind was to attract Gu Beichen''s attention. "Chen Shao..." Duni looked at Gu Beichen with a wronged look, pursed her lips, and her eyes were filled with a thin layer of water mist. "You see, you can help me be fair... I didn''t mean it just now." Gu Beichen looked at Duni coldly, but at once, the eagle''s eyes were completely disgusted. Yu Ziyun and others also came over. Some of them watched the good play and scolded Du Ni for trying to seduce Gu Beichen Jane Morley stood there, neither humble nor arrogant, but with a sneer at the corners of her mouth. Xiangwan and others looked at Gu Beichen, feeling unspeakable in their hearts After all, more than four years ago, the day Jian Mo left, Gu Beichen went to Xiangyu to find her... Everyone is not sure what the relationship between the two people is, or just some contact. Just when everyone was wondering what Gu Beichen would say, he suddenly squatted down slowly... Then, under the stunned eyes of everyone, he gently cleaned up the slightly dirty train of Jian Mo because she was stepped on. Everyone''s breathing was suffocated at that moment Apart from Jian Mo, no one has seen such Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen in everyone''s eyes is the indifferent president of the Emperor... Even if he had an affair before, he is also a high-ranking appearance. When will you do such a thing? "I''m short-sighted and stingy..." Gu Beichen slowly got up and opened his mouth. His voice was as if he wanted to condense the air. He looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, "generally, the people around him are wronged, and I will make others more wronged..." then, he turned his head and looked at Duni. His thin lips raised a cold arc, and his voice was gentle and oppressive, "unintentional or intentional... Huh?" The sound of light eh was like a knife that broke Duni''s tight nerves, and her heart suddenly "clattered". Jane Mo didn''t know what Gu Beichen was going to do, but she could feel that the man was unhappy now "I......" Du Ni was too frightened to say anything because of Gu Beichen''s eyes. She just pursed her lips and looked at her. Everyone''s breathing gradually became dignified. Yu Ziyun and Luo Xiaojing looked at each other and sent a message in their eyes. Gu Beichen will be here today... It''s entirely because of Jian mo. The atmosphere was a little dignified. Jian Mo sighed secretly, thinking that it was Yu Ziyun''s wedding after all. How bad is this rigid. What''s more, there are the media... Gu Beichen embarrasses a woman. If they write indiscriminately by those people, they don''t know what messy things can come out tomorrow. Unfortunately, Jane Mo didn''t expect at the moment... Gu Beichen came today with a purpose in mind. And Dunny gave him a chance! Just when everyone was breathing stagnation, Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and his thin lips opened coldly and said, "apologize to my wife!" Gu Beichen''s words fell. Everyone present, including Jian Mo, dilated their pupils and opened their mouths in amazement Chapter 279 Jian Mo now doesn''t know how to express her inner churn. It''s like tens of thousands of grass mud horses roaring in her chest... They can''t rush out and can''t stop. Everyone looked at Jian Mo in a dull way. Both the people of the two companies and the media were shocked by Gu Beichen''s words. "Foam?" Da Xiong swallowed hard and looked at Jian Mo, "that... Chen Shao''s'' wife ''... Is it you?" Xiang night suddenly burst open like, "my God... Sister Mo, are you really Chen Shao''s wife?" After she asked, she came to the rhythm of thunder to kill her, "ah... Who can pinch me? I don''t know how to digest the truth." Because of the yelling at night, Mo Xiaoya and others asked one by one. Jane Mo wanted to cry without tears on her face. She hasn''t thought of marrying Gu Beichen in seclusion, especially now that they both have children However, she didn''t think it would be exposed under such circumstances? How did it surprise Gu Beichen just as the milk bag was exposed in front of her? The most important thing is... Gu Beichen didn''t discuss with her at all! She didn''t believe it. He had no other way to punish Duni... He did it on purpose! Jian Mo secretly gnashed her teeth and looked at Gu Beichen, but there was nothing on her face... Under the sight of all different thoughts, she just tried to pull a smile. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s angry line of sight, and the corners of his mouth slightly scratched a thin, evil smile. At the same time, the eagle''s eyes slid deeply over Andy There were whispers in my ears, with consternation and consternation... I couldn''t believe it more. "God..." Andy finally learned the situation from Qiao Zirong''s translation and stared at Jane Mo, "Jane, is he your husband?" Jian Mo sighed quietly, not arrogant or impetuous. She just looked at Gu Beichen and said with a light smile in her mouth: "officially introduce my husband... Gu Beichen!" Her words are ordinary. In other people''s eyes, Gu Beichen is the president of the emperor, but in her eyes... He is just a man who loves her. Gu Beichen listened to Jian Mo''s introduction, and his eyes became soft in an instant... When she said "my husband", his heart became proud. Andy looked at Jian Mo and Gu Beichen with a sad face and wanted to cry directly. He chased all the way to China and hasn''t started the pursuit plan yet. His goddess is already someone else''s bride... Andy looked at Jian Mo with a tearful look, and then looked at Gu Beichen angrily. I can''t figure out why Jane married this man after a short separation when they seemed to have a very ordinary relationship last time in Britain. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly cold, and his thin lips were filled with coldness The scene suddenly became a little strange, including Du Ni, who wanted to attract Gu Beichen''s attention, who secretly bit her teeth one by one, and was jealous and angry at Jane Morse. "Sister Mo, what you said before is true?" Xiangwan feels so stupid. Sister Mo has told her many times. She has also seen chenshao having an affair with sister mo. in the end, she doesn''t believe it. Jane Mo just shrugged her shoulders and expressed helplessness that everyone didn''t believe what she said in the past. A reporter wants to come forward for an interview, but Gu Beichen publicly admits who his wife is... There has been speculation before. Gu Beichen changed his evil ways and was subdued by his hidden wife... It turned out to be true. Unfortunately, everyone just spoke. Gu Beichen''s indifferent sentence "he''s not the protagonist today" was blocked back. Yu Ziyun and Luo Xiaojing have been living together for more than two years. Today is just a formal wedding... We are all casual people. For today''s unexpected truth, we can''t help feeling that this wedding is worth more. However, Luo Xiaojing still has sharp eyes and sees that Gu Beichen came here today to swear sovereignty Luo Xiaojing looked at the charming Jian Mo in the sun... She couldn''t help smiling and motioned to Yu Ziyun for Andy, who was injured on his next face. "In the world of love, there is no position... Gu Beichen did so!" Yu Ziyun hugged Luo Xiaojing''s waist and said, "if you have a position, it means you don''t love enough... Honey, are you right?" Luo Xiaojing smiled and glared angrily, "go away, don''t talk sweetly." "Get out of your arms?" Yu Ziyun asked seductively, "less sweet words... How about me more?" Luo Xiaojing''s smile on the corner of her mouth instantly fainted all her emotions. No matter how strong a woman is, she also hopes to have a man who takes care of herself... And Yu Ziyun is the one she wants to find. Their wedding became particularly lively because of Gu Beichen''s sudden visit. Although the media can''t interview, it''s OK to take photos. Various media quickly sent the photos in their hands back to their respective platforms, but in an instant... There was another wave about Jian Mo in Los Angeles. Gu Beichen''s wife was thoroughly exposed to the public this time, but there are many people in the world who can''t see better than others and live better than themselves. They are all jealous people Of course, these people will not attack Beigu. Jane Mo holds her mobile phone and nests on the sofa. Looking at the comments one by one, she can''t help laughing She used to watch Beichen''s affair with other women as a joke. Now she can still laugh by herself. Jane Mo went to the study with her mobile phone. Gu Beichen was reading the documents. She didn''t care. She sat directly on his lap, hooked his neck and said, "they said that we would divorce at the end of the year..." Gu Beichen put down his signature pen and buried his face in Jian Mo''s neck, "then?" "I put on a vest and replied..." Jane Mo smiled a little thief. Gu Beichen got up and looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, "reply what?" Jian Mo held the waiting plane in front of Gu Beichen... The corners of her mouth smiled, and her beautiful eyes twinkled with cunning light. Gu Beichen stared There are only five words in the reply - when the divorce is going on! "When the divorce is in progress?" Gu Beichen''s voice was low and dangerous. Jane Mo swallowed it secretly, hardened her scalp, pulled the corners of her mouth, blinked innocent eyes, smiled lightly, eh: "isn''t it?" "It seems..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil became deep, "... I want you to understand what our relationship is now." Then he suddenly put his hands into Jianmo''s waist and made a sudden effort. Then he got up and pressed Jianmo on his desk. "The milk bag is waking up..." Jane Mo supported Gu Beichen with both hands. "I''ll make a quick decision!" Gu Beichen said in a low voice. Jian Mo''s breath was also a little hurried. Gu Beichen''s hands and lips were like magic. She couldn''t resist Xu is afraid that Jian Jie will suddenly get up. Both Jian Mo and Gu Beichen have a sense of being thieves. They are very excited... After a while, they both get great satisfaction. Just when Jian Mo trembled with excitement and spasm, Gu Beichen buried his head in her ear and said, "Mo''er, let''s have a wedding, too?" Chapter 280 Jian Mo found out that Gu Beichen especially likes to hit her when she is confused and infatuated recently... Even if it''s once or twice, but it''s always like this. If she''s cheated, she really has a problem. "Gu Beichen..." "Ah Chen or her husband!" Gu Beichen interrupted Jian Mocai when she spoke, and was dissatisfied with her surname. Jane Mo glanced. "I haven''t settled with you yet!" "What account?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. "Didn''t the milk bag say you would work at home today?" Asked Jane mo. Gu Beichen''s eyes were more and more deep, just nodded. "Why did Yu always show up at the wedding?" Jane Mo stared. Gu Beichen''s cold face was so indifferent, his thin lips opened gently, and said calmly, "Xiao Jie said that I will work at home today." he glanced at the messy documents on the desk because of the two people, "I really will work at home today!" "..." Jane Mo was speechless and knew that she had been fooled by the conspiracy of her father and son. Jian Mo was dissatisfied and wanted to push Gu Beichen away, but she couldn''t. Suddenly, she stared at Gu Beichen and asked, "even so, why did you suddenly go to president Yu''s wedding today? Even if you did... I misunderstood, but why did you suddenly disclose our relationship?" Gu Beichen was more innocent. A pair of eagle eyes stared at Jian Mo deeply, "you agree." Mom... Jane Mo is completely angry. "When did I agree?" Asked Jane Mo gnashing her teeth. Gu Beichen''s thin lips made an evil radian, and his eyes condensed with Jian Mo became deeper and deeper. It was as deep as an ancient pond, which made people unable to see to the end. "That night, I asked you... Shall we make it public? You answered... Um!" Jian Mo was stunned by what he said. A pair of bright eyes fanned and looked at Gu Beichen blankly, "when did I agree? It''s impossible..." "Mo''er, do you need me to help you remember?" Gu Beichen said in a low and charming way, and then bent over. His thin lips had attacked Jian Mo''s cheek skin. Jane Mo pushed Gu Beichen away. She didn''t know whether it was because of her great strength or Gu Beichen didn''t pay attention... She pushed him away. Gu Beichen fell back to his chair and sat down, looking at the angry Jian Mo, "in fact, it doesn''t make much sense to tangle with those past things... Just now you saw that we were very happy when we discussed it?" "I think you''re happy alone... Hum, it''s me who scolded publicly!" Jane is dissatisfied. "Then let''s have a make-up wedding... Well, how about Proposing first?" Gu Beichen smiled with thin lips and asked with deep eyes, "let everyone know that my husband is chasing you!" Jane Mo''s mouth had spread a smile, and then said solemnly, "Mr. Gu, who doesn''t want to have a wedding with you... At that time, we took your face into consideration, and now we''re divorced?" Upon hearing the word "divorce", Gu Beichen immediately sank his face, "we need to make an appointment!" "What?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "No matter what happens in the future, we are not allowed to mention divorce..." Gu Beichen said in a deep voice, pulling Jian Mo to her legs, chin against her head. "After so much, I think it''s not easy for two people to be together. It''s too hurt to separate... It''s too hurt!" Originally, Jane Mo was just joking. In fact, after the two said everything, she didn''t intend to leave the man At this moment, hearing Gu Beichen''s words, his heart was inexplicably sour, "Hmm!" They won''t miss four years if they don''t separate. Life... How many four years? The news outside is buzzing. After Gu Beichen publicly admitted that Jian Mo was his wife, the media compared the relevant news in recent years. And some things that you can''t figure out before are clear For example, four years ago, why was it possible to participate in the draft comparison of the imperial club on the scale of Xiangyu. Why is Xiao Jing photographed with Jian mo Even, the media revealed Jian Mo''s wayward behavior towards the emperor. The outside world blew up, as if the whole city of Los Angeles were talking about the marriage of Jian Mo and Gu Beichen. Some people speculated that the versions of the two people''s various processes from hidden marriage to public. The most convincing thing is that the reporter of the Los Angeles Morning Post accidentally took a picture of Jian Mo and Gu Beichen eating out together a few days ago. But... Jane Mo''s favorite version is Gu Beichen has always loved Jianmo deeply, but Jianmo doesn''t like him... He takes Jianmo into marriage in a domineering way, and stimulates Jianmo with all kinds of gossip and first love girlfriend, which makes Jianmo sad and finally goes abroad to study. Gu Beichen regretted that he had no affair for more than four years and waited for his wife. Jian Mo was finally moved by him, and the relationship between the two finally saw the sun. "Ha ha..." Jane Mo was so happy that she leaned against the door of the kitchen with her mobile phone. "Ah Chen, it turns out that you married me because you secretly love me?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with a gloomy face. "Are you sure I can cook dinner tonight?" "How expected the milk bag is, of course you do!" Jane Mo looked innocently at Gu Beichen and smiled at the corners of her mouth. Gu beichenjun''s face was dark. "Will Xiaojie have a problem eating it?" "It''s all right. Feel the dark cuisine. It''s also an important memory of life!" Jane shrugged helplessly, then turned around and sat on the sofa to continue reading online comments. After Jane Jie packed up the toys, her little face was disgusted. Looking at Jane Mo, she said, "Mommy, did you want daddy to disclose your relationship very early?" "Who said that?" Jane turned her eyes. "You!" "Me?" Jane Mo looked at Jane Jie in amazement, "when did I say that?" "Here... Your face is full!" Jane Jie shook her head as if she couldn''t stand it, and then went to wash her hands. Jane Mo subconsciously touches her face. Is there anything on her face? She is obviously reserved... She just wants to enjoy what Gu Beichen pursues. When did she want their relationship to be open? She is enough to be despised by me and her son! The garden is warm, like thousands of families... Full of the most ordinary sweetness. Chu Zixiao''s vision of watching the news gradually became deep. His heart was like being severely split with a knife, and he was almost suffocating with pain. Hands, gradually clenched up Looking at the picture of Gu Beichen gently holding Jian Mo''s waist on the computer screen, Jian Mo looked up slightly and looked at Gu Beichen''s picture with a smile in her mouth. Because her knuckles were too hard, a "quack" sound came out. Such a smile should have belonged to him! The sound of "Di" slipped gently, and the prompt tone of the text message pulled back Chu Zixiao''s thoughts. Converging his sight, Chu Zixiao picked up his mobile phone and cut open the text message... When he saw the content of the text message, he looked cold in the eyes. The text message reads: I heard you were investigating Jane Zhanfeng''s death? Chapter 281 Chu Zixiao immediately sat upright and looked at the content in the text message. His eyes gradually darkened He didn''t disclose the matter of checking the Yujing lake. He even knew that the matter of Yujing lake had something to do with the emperor. He just questioned Beichen and didn''t say anything. Who is this man? How did he know he was investigating uncle Jane''s death? One question after another slipped through his mind, and Chu Zixiao''s vision became deep. The sound of "Di" broke the silence again. Chu Zixiao looked at the mobile phone screen indifferently: I don''t want to know what happened by Yujing lake that year? Why is it so late for Jian Zhanfeng to go to Yujing lake with heavy rain? Chu Zixiao''s sight was suddenly cold, and then dialed back according to the SMS number "It seems that you are very eager!" At the other end of the phone, there was a voice with a cold smile. Chu Zixiao sneered, "I just want to know who you are... That''s all." "Don''t... You want to know more about Jane Zhanfeng''s death?" The man asked with a smile. "I want to know what I want to know. I just need to check it myself..." Chu Zixiao''s voice is calm and indifferent. "If something is led by others, it will lose direction. This is not what I should do as a lawyer." The man smiled. "Do what the police should do, that''s what you should do as a lawyer?" The man''s words had just fallen. Chu Zixiao''s sight became sharp in an instant, and his eyes shone two cold lights sharply As if the man felt Chu Zixiao''s anger and smiled more and more, "don''t worry, I won''t do anything... At least, I''m not your enemy." After a slight pause, he continued, "if you want to know the truth in three days, call me on this phone." The words fell and didn''t give Chu Zixiao a chance to speak. The man had just hung up the phone. Chu Zixiao''s vision has narrowed into a gap, and his eyes are like a vortex. He can''t see it in the end gradually. Get up, Chu Zixiao takes his coat and goes downstairs "Xiao, I''m going to have dinner later. What are you going to do?" Gu Ci was watching TV when he saw Chu Zixiao hurried out and couldn''t help frowning. "I''ll find Beichen..." Chu Zixiao kept walking out. Gu Ci''s eyebrows wrinkled more tightly. Just after Chu Zixiao opened the door and went out, his eyes fell on the news. From the beginning to the end, no one in the Gu family spoke... It was well known that Beichen married Jian Mo for the shares in the hands of his second uncle. But later, everyone saw... Beichen really liked Jian mo. It''s just... They were surprised when Jane Mo suddenly went abroad to study. However, no one inquired, and Beichen didn''t say, so no one went to investigate the relationship between him and Jian mo. Today''s news came out, and the two finally exposed... Gu CI knew that Beichen and Jian Mo planned to be together well, otherwise, Beichen''s temperament would not be made public. Gu CI thought at home that Chu Zixiao had driven out of Lishan villa. As the car drove down the hill, he pressed the car phone. Gu Beichen is looking at the menu on his mobile phone. A sudden phone call interrupts his seriousness Seeing Chu Zixiao, he wiped his hand and picked up his mobile phone, "Zixiao?" "Where is it?" On the phone, Chu Zixiao heard some distant voices. Gu Beichen''s sight gradually deepened, "moistening garden..." When the news comes out, Zixiao will call him. Gu Beichen is not surprised at all. "I went to find you..." "Are you sure?" Chu Zixiao''s eyes were slightly cold, "why, it''s inconvenient?" With a cold voice, Gu Beichen was already standing by the kitchen window. Looking at the fading sky in Los Angeles, he said, "if it''s about Jian Mo, I don''t think it''s necessary... Zixiao, I think today''s news has explained everything." "It''s about Jane Mo, but not about her!" Chu Zixiao''s voice was cold and dark. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, "do you have to bite the things by the Yujing lake?" "No, it can''t!" Chu Zixiao''s voice had darkened, "Beichen, because of the Yujing lake, I lost Jian mo... Isn''t it?" If it wasn''t for uncle Jane, how could Jane Mo break up with him and finally marry Beichen? He is not reconciled to the cycle of things in the world... He has never loved less, and he is unwilling to lose in fate. Gu Beichen''s cold face was gradually covered with haze, "I hope you don''t regret..." he slowly put down his mobile phone and hung up without saying anything to Chu Zixiao. Jianjie is playing a puzzle game with Jianmo outside. After being rejected many times, Jianmo finally explodes, "don''t play!" "Stupid still won''t let me say!" Jane Jay curled his mouth. "I''m stupid. Don''t play with me..." Jane Mo was angry and wanted to get up and see Gu Beichen''s progress. As soon as the talent got up, the prompt tone of short message came from his mobile phone, which was su Junli''s. Jun Li: if you are happy, it is the end! Jian Mo''s heart softened in an instant. She couldn''t respond to Su Junli''s feelings... She couldn''t say anything to bless him to find happiness earlier, which was like throwing salt in his heart. After thinking about it, Jane Mo only replied two words: Thank you! Su Jun left and stood on the edge of the taro flower field, where he "met" with Jian Mo at the end of summer four years ago Gradually, the dark sky shrouded his whole body. The wind blew, blowing layers of waves in the sea taro field, which was particularly beautiful... But such beauty was lonely. Su Jun gradually spread a thin but bitter smile from the corner of his mouth. "You must strive for happiness..." Su Junli''s voice was as light as if the wind could be blown away, "it''s not worth turning around like this..." The murmuring voice dispersed with the wind. Su Junli gradually converged his sight in the distance and turned slowly Momo, I sincerely wish you... Happiness! The coming of night is precipitated in wanton news and sad love. The sound of "Zhi -" and the harsh sound of braking echoed in the underground garage of runzeyuan, revealing a treacherous atmosphere. Chu Zixiao looked sideways at Gu Beichen''s car. His vision narrowed slightly. Then he loosened his seat belt, opened the door and got off. All his actions were done at one go. He stepped into the elevator. Chu Zixiao pressed the number on the top floor and looked at the changing number. His sight became deep. After the blues questioned Beichen about Yujing lake, he didn''t dare to investigate deeply Chu Zixiao''s breath was a little heavy, and there was a complete contradiction in her eyes... One was a little uncle who was worshipped from small to large, and the other was a deeply loved first love, which seemed destined to make this situation impossible to face clearly. The sound of "Ding" came. At the moment when the elevator door opened, Chu Zixiao walked out Pressing the doorbell, Chu Zixiao looked at the closed door with dim eyes. While waiting, the corners of his mouth gradually became cold. There was a sound of the opening door. At moment of the opening door, Chu Zixiao didn''t see human figure... Subconsciously, when his eyes fell on Jian Jie''s face, his pupils spread Chapter 282 Jian Jie looked up at Chu Zixiao, with bright black pupils. There was not much expression on his handsome face. "Uncle, who are you looking for?" Uncle? Chu Zixiao only felt that the position of his heart had been knocked. He stared at Jian Jie. At that moment, the whole person''s thoughts were shocked and couldn''t turn. Jian Jie estimated that Chu Zixiao was surprised because his face looked so much like his father. He didn''t speak anymore. He waited until Chu Zixiao was surprised Jian Mo saw that Jian Jie didn''t come in for a long time, but shouted from the room, "milk bag, why don''t you and your second mother come in?" Just now Li Xiaoyue congratulated her and Gu Beichen on finally completing a leap forward progress. I heard that Gu Beichen actually cooked in person. I was excited and said I would come and have a try. For Jian Mo who has had a painful experience, one can pit is another... Li Xiaoyue must also feel how crazy Gu Beichen''s cooking is, which is far from the omnipotent and domineering president. Jian Jie looked back at Jian Mo, "Mommy, it''s not the second mother!" After listening, Jane Mo then walked to the door. When she saw that it was Chu Zixiao, she was stunned first and then looked calm. "Who is he?" Chu Zixiao asked in a frozen voice. "My son!" Jane Mo answered calmly. Chu Zixiao frowned, "is he the son of Beichen?" Jian Mo shrugged, "obviously..." I can''t respond to Chu Zixiao''s persistence to her... No matter he or Su Junli, she doesn''t want to give them an illusory future. Chu Zixiao smiled, laughing at himself and even felt silly Beichen didn''t stop him from coming. He didn''t even need to come out at this time. He just threw out his son and Momo''s son... It''s good! How cruel! It''s really in line with Beichen''s style of conduct over the years. It''s resolute to make his opponent feel ashamed and retreat! How ridiculous the situation is now... He wanted to recover foam, but she gave him a cousin? Chu Zixiao stepped back and looked at Jian Mo with a complicated look. There was disappointment, doubt and confusion in her eyes... More of a collapse on the edge under the confinement of love! Gu Beichen came out. Dressed in household clothes, he faded his awe inspiring arrogance as the president of the emperor. However, his arrogance towards the world did not reduce a penny. Chu Zixiao''s sight crossed Jian Mo and fell on Gu Beichen. There was gradually ridicule in the bottom of his eyes... But he didn''t know whether it was self ridicule or ridicule Gu Beichen. "That..." Jian Mo felt the turbulent undercurrent between the two men. Now it''s over. If Chu Zixiao can completely break his mind, she doesn''t mind being a little more cruel, "I avoid the milk bag and you solve it!" Then she looked at Beichen and motioned to Jianjie to go back to the house together. However, the glance at Gu Beichen before leaving fell into Chu Zixiao''s eyes at the moment, which was particularly dazzling. "Mommy, your peach blossoms are too prosperous..." Jane said discontentedly after entering the house. "Compared with Daddy, you should review it!" Jane Mo proudly raised her eyebrows and said, "no way... Your mommy, I''m as beautiful as a flower!" "I think you are narcissistic!" Jian Jie shook his head, then looked at the direction of the kitchen, some drooping his small shoulders, "how do you feel... There''s no way to eat daddy''s meal tonight?" "It''s all right, I missed this time, and next time..." Jane Mo didn''t forget Keng''s son, but subconsciously looked at the position of the door and guessed how the nephew would solve the problem. Under the cover of ink sky, the empty rooftop seemed to be within reach of darkness. The gentle evening wind brushed his face and slightly raised Gu Beichen''s rebellious short hair. He stood by the fence with his hands in his pockets, looked at the lights in the distance, and said with his thin lips: "Zixiao, do you have to bite the things of that year and don''t let go?" The low voice came coldly. At the moment, it was not a conversation between nephews, but a contest between men. "What do you think?" Chu Zixiao was cold. If he was still at a loss before coming, then... When he saw Jane Jie, he was already on the edge of the abyss. Gu Beichen slowly turned around. The eagle''s eyes were like a calm sea without wind and waves. In fact, the undercurrent was turbulent, "in that case, how can I stop you from continuing?" Light eh''s voice is full of unpredictable emotions, and his cold face is so indifferent that people can''t peep into his psychology Chu Zixiao said coldly, "little uncle, you seem to have no fear?" "Otherwise?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips were cold, "if the result is what you want... Zixiao, I will complete you. But Jian mo... I won''t let you in this life!" "I''m afraid you can''t let me go at that time?" Chu Zixiao clenched his hand and confronted Gu Beichen. His heart had become one. Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a radian like nothing, and he looked arrogantly at the world with such a smile. He converged his eyes on Chu Zixiao''s face, then turned aside, and his eyes fell in the distance again, "your starting point is to hurt her... Zixiao, why do you talk about loving her?" "Don''t tell me this..." Chu Zixiao roared, "now you got Mo Mo, you can naturally say so... And me? What''s wrong with me? I love her, I fell in love with her at the first sight in school... I planned all the blueprints for us, but all my dreams were broken because of the things by Yujing lake!" "That''s my dream... Foam is the dream of my life, but my dream was shattered because of something unrelated to me..." Chu Zixiao said at last, his voice was hoarse and roared, "I shouldn''t pay for the things of that year... Shouldn''t I?" Gu Beichen listened to Chu Zixiao''s accusations and questions. Jianmei gradually frowned, and a pair of ink pupils were deeply stained with ink empty halo. "What if you found the truth of that year? Mo''er... There is no feeling with you." "Then I''ll watch her let herself be with you, the executioner?" Chu Zixiao was completely crazy. His eyes were scarlet and roared, and his voice of gnashing teeth was even more angry. ''shua '', Gu Beichen''s fierce eyes suddenly slid sharply to Chu Zixiao, "executioner?" He let out a faint sigh, with danger in his voice. "As a lawyer, when did you... Be so arbitrary?" Chu Zixiao said coldly, "isn''t it?" He asked, "I didn''t continue to check, but you and I knew everything I showed you that day..." his voice was suddenly cold, "Uncle Zhan''s death... Was caused by you!" Chapter 283 Gu Beichen looked at Chu Zixiao''s eyes and gradually narrowed slightly. A pair of eagle eyes were fierce and cold. It was already summer, but the surrounding air was cold as if frozen. "I have nothing to refute..." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and said quietly, "I''ll still say that... When you have evidence!" Chu Zixiao suddenly clenched his hand and confronted Gu Beichen. At that moment... They knew that many things were different. The wind is a little bleak in an instant. Gu Beichen didn''t have too many expressions on his face from beginning to end. A handsome face was so indifferent. Chu Zixiao''s face was a little dark, as if he was struggling in the end... However, the last straw he depended on for survival broke because he worked too hard! A gust of wind glided past. It was obviously warm, but it was cold to the bone. Chu Zixiao finally turned around without saying anything... And such a turn gradually turned into various complex emotions in the depths of Gu Beichen''s eyes. While Jane Mo was cooking with the ingredients prepared by Gu Beichen, she listened absently to Li Xiaoyue''s nagging words in her ear. "Girl, what are you going to do next?" After talking a lot, Li Xiaoyue also found Jian Mo''s absent-minded and asked with a sigh. Jane Mo thought back, "Xiaoyue, there has never been only one him in my life... When I didn''t know it was him, my heart had fallen. If he was my last..." after a pause, she looked at Li Xiaoyue and said with a serious smile, "I want to go on with him." Jane Moruo lowered her lip. "That rainy night is just the beginning. Two years of marriage is the main reason for my fall... I love this man who will move me from the subtle. Even though he has been suppressed for more than four years, I have to admit that I still love him." "I understand..." Li Xiaoyue said with a smile. "You haven''t been moved since such an excellent Su Jun left you for more than four years. I know... You''ve never put down Gu Beichen." Jane Mo smiled and filled the stuffy dishes, "in fact, I always thought I put it down..." "But you didn''t!" Li Xiaoyue shrugged and said with a smile. Jane Mo''s smile is deeper... Everything is fine now. As for what the outside world says, she doesn''t care. It''s enough as long as Gu Beichen really loves her. Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo''s happy appearance and was especially happy for her... No matter who it was, happiness was good. When Gu Beichen came back, Jian Mo''s meal was ready. He didn''t have too many mood swings on his face, because Li Xiaoyue was there, and Jian Mo couldn''t ask him what he talked to Chu Zixiao Although Jane Jie has some small regrets, because the atmosphere is very good, the little guy doesn''t worry too much about the food he didn''t eat from his father. A meal was pleasant, as if nothing had happened. When the meal was almost finished, Gu Beichen answered the phone and went to the study Standing in front of the study window, he copied his pocket with one hand and held his mobile phone in the other hand, listening to Xiao Jing''s report. "Finally, the clue is broken in Holland..." Xiao Jing''s voice is a little dignified. "In addition, I found an interesting thing... The second master is also in Holland recently!" Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly heavy, and his thin lips scratched a thin sneer and said, "I really want to know... How will the second uncle deal with me this time?" The voice of Shen Li was so long that it forced people''s hearts. Even though Xiao Jing was across the phone, he could feel the depression of taking care of Beichen. He didn''t speak, just slowly clenched his hand That year, Gu mohuai hurt Chen Shao. It was an abyss. People didn''t know how to make up for it. "Erjing, Chen Shao wants to live by himself..." Xiao Nan is playing with a military knife. "If he can''t face it himself, no one can help him!" Xiao Jing''s hand holding the mobile phone was so tight that the mobile phone made a mechanical noise, "sister... How can Chen Shao be so proud of himself?" He clenched his teeth, and there was forbearance in his voice. Xiao Nan stopped talking... Because there was no way to pass on the things that had been completely torn off her dignity. Gu mohuai is abnormal But an emperor, he almost destroyed Chen Shao, his will, and even his reason to live. Night, too quiet, like the calm before the storm. In the bedroom, the two people whose necks meet each other send out enchanting low breaths and whining. Jane Mo felt that Gu Beichen was different tonight... As if she wanted to explode, and as if she was holding back something. When we were combined with her, the whole person was shrouded in a kind of edge gloom. Attack, too overbearing and in-depth, so that Jane Mo''s thoughts were defeated and there was no way to think Too crazy possession is like fear of loss. When Jian Mo is about to die by Gu Beichen, he stops all his actions and just kisses her. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo took Gu Beichen''s neck. "Did you have a bad talk with Zixiao?" "You said, I robbed my nephew''s woman..." Gu Beichen''s thin lips opened gently, and his voice showed the forbearance under the scorching heat, which made people unable to hear the real emotion. "Can that nephew be happy?" Jane Mo glared angrily, "I''m not kidding. Can''t you be more serious?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips and deep eyes hide all his emotions, "don''t think about anything... Just enjoy all the memories I bring you, huh?" Light Yi''s voice is too magnetic and charming. Coupled with Gu Beichen''s attack, Jian Mo can only respond instinctively However, the two people embracing each other at the moment never thought that a storm came so fast that they didn''t love each other well "Are you sure you want to launch this first?" The woman looked at the information in her hand and then looked at her back standing in front of the French window. "Yes." The man just answered calmly without much emotion. The woman smiled, "aren''t you afraid of self defeating?" After a pause, she raised her eyebrows and said, "I''m not afraid that Chu Zixiao''s side will backfire?" "How?" The man looked down with a smile and said, "as soon as the news of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo came out, he couldn''t sit still... I followed him all the way. When I came out, his speed obviously accelerated. Obviously... He was even more depressed than when he went." "You like to play through human nature so much. Sometimes it''s really frightening!" The woman sighed. "So... Are you afraid?" The man tilted his head slightly. Because the light was too dark, he could only vaguely see the cold smile at the corner of his mouth. The woman shrugged. "I won''t betray you..." The man smiled and the smile spread for a few minutes, but it didn''t reach the bottom of his eyes. He saw his eyes dark and fierce. After a long time, he slowly said, "I want Gu Beichen to betray his relatives!" After a pause, he continued, "then... He will come back to me!" Chapter 284 Gu Beichen''s wife is Jian mo. the whole city of Los Angeles, and even those who care about the emperor and Gu Beichen, have been paying attention to the follow-up development The media wanted to dig out everything, but finally found that even the executives of emperor group were surprised that Jian Mo was Gu Beichen''s wife. Especially Shang Junhao! Shang Junhao is a very capable designer. As the chief designer of the emperor, he has talent and naturally has proud capital Of course, such capital is given by Gu Beichen! Since Gu Beichen took over the emperor, he focused on everyone''s ability. If you have the ability, he will give you a proud platform, which is why more talented people sharpen their heads and want to drill in. "President, I just want to know why Jane..." Shang Junhao paused and finally said, "why did your wife withdraw from this comparison!" He looked forward to Jian Mo''s design, but he didn''t see it at last! Gu Beichen slowly lay back in his seat and said indifferently, "the design of one of the companies is 80% similar to her. As the last person to compare the draft... Do you think she abstained or what?" Gu Beichen''s words made Shang junhaodun stare, "how can it?" Such an important design should be kept confidential even within the company itself... And the only possibility is that something goes wrong. "Not only does Xiangyu have problems, but the emperor also has problems." Gu Beichen said indifferently, "test you, which company do you think will collide with Jian Mo''s design?" "Popular!" Shang Junhao hardly thought about it. Gu Beichen put on a thin smile on his thin lips, "I''ll leave it to you... Whether it''s the media or the inside, I''ll wait for you to give me a satisfactory answer." "Yes, president!" Shang Junhao answered. For their designers, what they hate most is plagiarism and plagiarized ideas... It can be said that in case of such, no one will cooperate with each other. Not two minutes after Shang Junhao left, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone rang Mor''er: I suddenly found that exposure has a little advantage, that is, my business has developed unexpectedly... Just, I''m a little worried. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and his slender fingers crossed the screen: there is only one truth. Even if he is unwilling to face it, he must face it. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s reply and took a deep breath with the corners of her lips: there''s nothing I can''t face with you around me. Gu Beichen smiled, and the light in his eyes was because the smile spread deep. In this way, the days have escaped. In Los Angeles this year, the temperature seems to be particularly high in summer, which makes people a little irritable. The car stopped in the cemetery. Gu Beichen looked sideways and took the Little Daisy to open the door and get off. Xiao Jing looked back and didn''t speak, but his eyes followed Gu Beichen''s body until his back disappeared at the door of the cemetery. Gu Beichen walked up step by step, with steady steps The hand holding the daisy hung slightly, and the scorching sun fell around him, but he seemed not hot at all, but walked indifferently. Standing in front of the tombstones of Jian Zhanfeng and Su Mo, looking at the small black-and-white photos, Gu Beichen bent down slowly and put the daisy in front of the tombstone. Without speaking, Gu Beichen stood quietly in front of the tombstone, and his sight fell on the photo of Jian Zhanfeng... I don''t know how long it took. It was as if the sun couldn''t see it for a long time, and finally hid in the thick clouds. "I promise you..." Gu Beichen''s low voice overflowed his thin lips. There was an agreement between men in his eagle eyes, "I will love her with my life..." In a word, it is a commitment to Jane Zhanfeng and to Jane Moai. Gu Beichen stood in front of the tombstone again for a while, then took back his sight and turned indifferently However, he didn''t move after turning around... He stood for a long time before turning his head and looking at Jane Zhanfeng again. "I don''t know if I can hide it from her, but... I won''t forget what I promised you back then!" Gu Beichen said softly. After deeply freezing his eyes, he took back his sight and walked outside the cemetery. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao stopped the car, looked at the white building on one side through the window, frowned slightly and got off the car. Rang the doorbell and soon someone came and opened the door. "Lawyer Chu, isn''t he?" The man who opened the door was a middle-aged woman in her forties. "My young master invited you in." Chu Zixiao and the middle-aged woman nodded slightly and followed her into the villa. The villa covers a wide area, but it is empty and unpopular... It is like a place that has been vacant for a long time, with a cold smell. After entering the villa, the middle-aged woman made tea for Chu Zixiao, then went to get a file bag and said, "this is what the young master asked you to give..." Chu Zixiao frowned slightly, "where is he?" "Young master, it''s inconvenient to meet you, but... If lawyer Chu doesn''t understand the information, you can call him!" Chu Zixiao''s eyes sank slightly, but he didn''t say anything more, just nodded slightly. "After you read it, you are not allowed to take the information out..." the middle-aged woman said again, "so there is only how much Chu Bian can write down." Chu Zixiao didn''t change his complexion, but after looking at the middle-aged woman calmly, he opened the file bag In the dark room, there is only one computer screen with faint light. The picture hits Chu Zixiao and is flipping the things in the file bag The man supported the handrail with one arm, bent his hand at will, put the back of his hand against his chin, and said with deep eyes: "it will be released now." "Yes, young master!" The voice of indifference came from the dark corner, full of treachery. The sun moved to the west, and the dryness and heat in the air did not dissipate. Instead, it was dreary. Since Andy learned that Jian Mo and Gu Beichen were husband and wife at the weekend, every time he saw Jian Mo, he looked like a "resentful woman", which made Jian Mo cry and laugh. The pleasant mobile phone ring rings. Jian Mo takes Gu Beichen for the sake of taking it. With a smile, he picks up, "ah Chen?" "Elder sister Gu, wait for me to have dinner in the evening." "Good!" Jane Mo answered and looked at the time. It was almost time to get off work. After packing up, it was just time to get off work. Jian Mo hurried into the elevator... But when she went in, she found that she had forgotten to take her mobile phone on the design desk. Secretly despised herself. Just when the elevator door opened again on a floor, she hurried out to get it But before people could step out of the elevator, they heard the people walking into the elevator outside holding their mobile phones and saying to the people next to them: "my God, this news is too hot. In those days, the things on the Bank of Yujing Lake were controlled by the emperor behind the scenes. The dead boss of Yuanda company was forced to death, which was not an accidental fall?" Jane Mo''s original hasty steps suddenly froze. Her pupils dilated instantly and suddenly looked back at the speake Chapter 285 With a bang, the elevator door closed at the moment when Jian Mo turned back. Vaguely, the voices of the people inside could be heard. Jane Mo''s breathing gradually became rapid. She froze in place for a while before she reacted. Even if she couldn''t wait for the elevator, she climbed the stairs and ran upstairs. Hurriedly opened the door of the office, and the mobile phone was ringing. Jane Mo came forward and picked it up. She saw that it was Gu Beichen''s She didn''t pick it up immediately. She just looked at the caller ID and gradually her breathing became short. The bell stopped and showed three missed calls. Jane Mo stared at the screen. She was suddenly afraid... She didn''t know whether she was afraid to watch the news or Gu Beichen''s phone. The position of the heart seemed to be blocked by something. Jane Mo bit her lip... At the right time, the phone rang again. Or Gu Beichen Jane Mo closed her eyes, took a breath, then opened her eyes and answered the phone, "huh?" "Are you still busy?" A low voice came softly. "I''m off duty..." said Jane moru. "I just forgot to take my mobile phone. I came up again after I went down... I''ll go down now." "Here I am, waiting for you downstairs." "Well, I''ll come down right away..." Jane Mo hung up the phone, locked the door and stood waiting at the elevator entrance. While waiting, she held the mobile phone in her hand and held it gently. Jian Mo finally picked it up and opened the news interface. On the headlines, there was a heated discussion about the event of "Yujing Lake" six years ago. Every article and paragraph above is written clearly, even... Finally, the bankruptcy and disappearance of the construction engineering company are as clear as the film. The sound of "Ding" came. Jian Mo mechanically came in, pressed the first floor, and looked at the numbers beating layer by layer... After a while, someone came in. Gradually, the elevator was crowded with people from work. Xu is that everyone talks too loudly. Xu is because Jane Mo is squeezed into the corner and no one pays attention The narrow carriage is full of news that has just burst out. "Well, isn''t that Yuanda''s boss Jane?" Someone suddenly whispered, "the wife Gu Beichen burst out two days ago is not Xiangyu''s Jian Mo? Will they have a relationship?" "It''s not like dog blood, is it?" Someone was surprised, "just after the show of love, there was a pillow man who killed his father and enemy?" "Mainly... If Jian Mo is Gu Beichen''s hidden wife, isn''t it that Yuanda married Gu Beichen shortly after the accident?" The car was full of discussion one after another. Jian Mo felt that the elevator that usually arrived very soon had become extraordinarily long. Jane Mo listened to everyone''s discussion and had an impulse to escape... But her feet stood motionless in the corner like lead. Xiao Jing''s cell phone vibrated. Seeing that it was Susan, he answered, "what are you calling me for now?" "Have you seen the news?" Susan has a dignified voice. "No!" "What''s wrong with Susan?" she asked "I don''t know where it came from. It said that Miss Jane''s father was forced to death by the emperor!" "..." Xiao Jing was stunned at first. Then he forgot to tell Susan, hung up the phone and hurried online to see The speed of online media is amazing. I don''t know who first released the news, because it is related to the emperor, and the speed of news spread is amazing. Xiao Jing didn''t have time to think about it, so he hurriedly called Gu Beichen, "Chen Shao, the news of Yujing Lake burst on the Internet." Gu Beichen didn''t speak. He just sat in the driver''s seat and looked at Jian Mo''s footsteps. He came slowly and mechanically. He couldn''t help but get his eagle eyes sinking. "What should come... Always comes." "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing didn''t expect Gu Beichen to say so. He couldn''t help but frown. "Talk later!" Gu Beichen''s words fell and he had already hung up. Jane Mo gets into the car and looks at Gu Beichen trying to pull the corners of her mouth... She doesn''t want to talk to Gu Beichen without verifying anything. It''s unfair to her and him. However, because of the pressure of the news in her heart, she tried to pull out a smile that was a little ugly. Gu Beichen didn''t ask about the news, but looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes and asked, "what''s the matter, isn''t it uncomfortable?" "No..." Jane Mo shook her head and pulled the corners of her mouth again. "I guess she''s a little tired." "It''s better to tell the elder sister that today is not over." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and asked Jianmo. "No..." Jane Mo shook her head again, "not very good!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo painfully. He couldn''t ask about it. He wanted her to ask him Just, what can I do if I ask? He can''t say... Can he? After starting the car, Gu Beichen drove Jian Mo to Lishan villa... The place that Jian Mo didn''t want to face because of Chu Zixiao four years ago. The atmosphere inside the car was unprecedented dignified. Jane Mo''s lips moved several times, but she didn''t say anything at last. Gu Beichen''s thin lips closed gently. When waiting for the traffic light, he glanced at Jian mo... She hung her eyes and twisted her fingers with each other. When she is worried and nervous, she will make such small moves The ink pupil was slightly deep, and Gu Beichen took back his sight when the green light was on. When we arrived at Lishan villa, the sunset had gradually disappeared in the west end, leaving only a bright afterglow in the sky and dyed the clouds red. Gu Beichen didn''t move, and Jian Mo didn''t move Jane Mo didn''t even know that the car had stopped, but she was trapped in her own thoughts. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen whispered. "Huh?" Jane Mo subconsciously looked up and saw that there was a loss in her sight. Gu Beichen looked at her more and more distressed, and his lips were dignified. "It''s not easy for us to go today... Aren''t you going to tell me what''s on your mind?" Jian Mo''s nose was slightly sour. Under Gu Beichen''s sight, she finally took out her mobile phone... And handed the news to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen didn''t look because he knew what it was. "Ah Chen, is it true?" Jane Mo asked in a slightly coagulated voice. Gu Beichen''s eyes were more and more profound. "Tell me, what''s your judgment?" Jane Mo shook her head and looked dignified. "I don''t know..." in her mind was the picture of the last time she came to Lishan villa. At the beginning, it seemed that she heard Zixiao and ah Chen talking about Yujing lake. "Ah Chen..." Jian moru''s lips took a breath secretly, and the black pupil glittered and coagulated Gu Beichen, "tell me, is it true?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was already deep. He condensed Jian Mo tightly and just asked, "if I say it''s not... Do you believe it?" PS: nt5ytl, each voucher is only valid for the first 100. Chapter 286 Gu Beichen''s vision is too far-reaching. Jian Mo gradually forgets the reaction to his eyes, but falls into the world he gave her, as if gradually calmed down. After being at a loss, Jane Mo gently touched the corner of her mouth, looked at Gu Beichen firmly, and restored her previous strength and firmness, "as long as you say it''s not... I''ll believe it!" "No!" Just two words, showing Gu Beichen''s incomparable firmness. Jane Mo smiled slightly at the corners of her mouth. Because she loved this man, she knew... He didn''t lie when he said these two words! "Gu Beichen, you say ''no''... I believe you!" Jane Mo''s nose was slightly sour. "I can face everything with you... But I can''t stand cheating alone. Do you understand?" Gu Beichen took Jian Mo into his arms with a long arm. His low and magnetic voice sounded in her ear like a cello, "thank you... Trust me!" The voice of Jane''s mother is very clear, because her father is very excited, even related to her. How much courage and love does it take for her to trust him? Mo''er, how can I bear your life if you treat me like this? Seeing the news, the big stone in my heart seemed to be gradually loose and calm. Jane Mo bit her lip, and then said with a touch of coquettish anger: "it''s time to go down... Or elder sister doesn''t know what''s going on with us?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips heaved a faint arc, loosened Jane Mo and stared at her. "Mo''er, I''ll give you an answer to the things about Yujing lake and Yuanda..." he paused and said, "just, I hope all the answers you get come from me!" Jian Mo knows that this matter was suddenly revealed today, which is still so detailed... The most important thing is not to explode at the earliest and at the later. It must have been done by someone with a heart after Gu Beichen just announced their relationship. "OK..." Jane Mo answered, "ah Chen, this is my promise to you. I''ll wait for you... Give me the final answer!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a comforting radian. He bent over and fell a soft kiss on Jian Mo''s forehead Very light, very soft... But it shows worship under the scorching heat. Hand in hand into the villa, Gu Ci and Chu tianqin both fell on their overlapping hands, and then they looked at each other... They had only one idea. The news broke out. Why don''t both of them know? "Beichen and Xiao Jian are coming..." Gu CI broke the silence and thought it would be better if they didn''t see it. He hurried forward enthusiastically, looked at Jian Mo and said, "I haven''t seen you for more than four years. Xiao Jian is beautiful again." Jane Mo smiled generously, "elder sister is not the same? The most important thing is... Young!" No woman doesn''t like to be praised as beautiful and young Suddenly, Gu CI smiled happily, "nonsense, how old are they? Are they still young?" She said this, but her eyes were obviously smiling, "come on, I''ll wait for you to come and have dinner." Chu tianqin looked at Beichen with a complicated look, and then went to the dinner table together. "Zixiao didn''t come back?" Gu Beichen spoke calmly. "I told him that I''ll be back soon..." Gu CI said, and had asked Jane Mo to sit down. Gu Beichen didn''t have any expression on his cold face, just made a casual "um" sound The atmosphere at the dinner table was a little strange. Today, Gu CI said that Jian Mo didn''t come to eat at home after returning home, so he shouted... However, in the corners of the rich family, Jian Mo also experienced it in his two-year marriage with Gu Beichen. Nothing, such a "home cooked meal" is very rare! However, Jian Mo was wrong this time, because from beginning to end, it was really just a home-made meal... But Chu Zixiao didn''t come back until the meal was finished. It''s already dark. A Land Rover is speeding wildly in the street, like a swimming dragon, interspersed with the neutral gear in the middle of each driving car "Didi... Didi... Didi..." On the road, the sound of impatient car horn opened the anxiety at night. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were dark and angry. He looked straight ahead. The steering wheel was like a soul in his hand. Every time he turned, he could slide past the car around him. Car, the road into the villa area, because there was no car on the road, his speed couldn''t help but be a little faster. Suddenly A lamp slides over the corner of the villa in front "Squeak -" The harsh brake sound is particularly harsh in the quiet villa area. Two cars, but it''s less than a meter away... No matter who hesitates! The lights on both sides shine on the opposite car, blocking the sight of both sides... Only the dust and fog floating under the lights can be seen. In this way, it seems to be a confrontation between cars, and it is also like an invisible confrontation between people... People on both sides didn''t get off the bus, but their eyes gathered slightly, emitting a cold light. "Ah Chen?" Jane Mowei frowned and shouted. Because of the light, she couldn''t see each other''s car and who was driving? "You wait in the car!" Gu Beichen put down a word, then opened the door and got out of the car. Almost at the same time, Chu Zixiao also opened the door and got out of the car. Jian Mo was a little surprised when she saw that it was Chu Zixiao. She couldn''t help frowning slightly Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao both stood by the door of their respective cars. Their eyes penetrated the dust and fog under the lights and showed sharp insight in an instant. Neither of them spoke. At this moment, it was not the confrontation between my little uncle and nephew, but for a woman... The contest between two men. Some things are destined to run counter Is it fate or something? In the end, when the two people sat opposite each other in such an empty environment and recalled the beginning of today, they showed more than disappointment. "It seems... You have made a decision!" Gu Beichen''s voice opened coldly. "Otherwise?" Chu Zixiao sneered. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes suddenly sank, his eyes narrowed slightly, and his peace was restored in an instant. "Mo''er, I won''t let go..." his voice was calm and cold and overbearing, "Zixiao, since this is your choice, I have nothing to say!" "I''m afraid of you..." Chu Zixiao sneered, "if you don''t let go... You can''t!" Gu Beichen frowned coldly, "Oh?" He let out a light sigh and sneered, "in that case, I''ll wait for you!" Chu Zixiao narrowed his eyes slightly, "Beichen, there is no airtight wall in the world... Even if you do it cleanly, how about it?" He sneered, "in the end... There are omissions, isn''t there?" Gu Beichen''s eyes remained unchanged. Even there was no expression on his face. However, when Chu Zixiao picked up his mobile phone and sent a simple but explosive text message to Gu Beichen''s mobile phone, he was stunned by all Gu Beichen''s nerves Chapter 287 Gu Beichen looked at the content of the information and his eyes narrowed in an instant. Suddenly, his sight became as deep as the sea, which was so deep that people couldn''t see it to the end. Delete the information, hang down your hand and slowly look up. Gu Beichen''s thin lips scratched a sneer like nothing He just took a deep look at Chu Zixiao. Without saying anything, he leaned aside and opened the door. Then he started the car and moved back beautifully. After turning the steering wheel, he directly crossed Chu Zixiao''s car and left Because Gu Beichen''s car left, the lights of Chu Zi roller coaster immediately shot into the distance, reflecting the flying dust clearly... But also shrouding human nature in the dark. Chu Zixiao looked back slightly, and Gu Beichen''s car had left only the light of a tail lamp... But in an instant, it had also disappeared at the corner. Peace was restored on the road, and everything seemed to have never happened... But it happened. Chu Zixiao astringed her eyes, got on the car indifferently, started and put into gear... All the actions were done at one go, with a heavy hostility. After returning home, Gu Ci and Chu tianqin were talking. Seeing Chu Zixiao coming back, they hurried to stop talking. "Today I asked your little uncle and aunt to come over for dinner. How did you come back now?" Gu CI asked. "A case has been delayed..." Chu Zixiao said casually. "I just met them outside." Gu CI felt something wrong with his son. He just thought that the recent case was too tired and didn''t ask, "have you eaten? I''ll ask the servant to get you something to eat?" "No need..." Chu Zixiao said calmly, "I go upstairs to take a bath." The words fell, and he had already stepped up. Gu Ci and Chu tianqin watched Chu Zixiao go upstairs until his door was closed. They looked at each other suspiciously "I don''t know who poked the things by Yujing Lake..." Chu tianqin''s heart was a little heavy, and even his face was dignified. "Today, little Jane was here, and Beichen didn''t say anything... I''m afraid it''s not over." Gu Ci''s face was also bad, and her shoulders drooped. "I thought it would be over after so long, but who knows..." after a pause, her eyebrows were locked, "the most important thing is, if Xiao Jane is really Jane Zhanfeng''s daughter..." She didn''t go on, but her face became dignified. In Los Angeles, there are many people surnamed Jane. No one thinks about the relationship between Jane Mo and Jane Zhanfeng Besides, everyone thought that when Gu Beichen began to marry her, he would investigate her life experience. No one would think about that... Now it''s better and more chaotic. Chu Tian Qin''s eyes narrowed slightly, "wait and see the change... After all, it doesn''t have much to do with us." "Why not?" Gu Ci''s voice suddenly became louder. After being stared at by Chu tianqin, she was dissatisfied, but her voice fell down, "tomorrow I''ll find Beichen." "Useful?" The emperor of Chu has been around for a long time, but now he is not the emperor of Chu Gu CI sat down beside Chu tianqin with a tangled face. His noble face was tangled together because of his dignity. "Dad and mom are coming back... Why can''t this thing pass?" Chu tianqin looked at Gu Ci and snorted coldly. He didn''t say anything Chu tianqin always resented Gu Beichen''s failure to help Chu four years ago. Although Chu finally got through the difficulties, he didn''t appreciate it at all... After all, Gu Beichen didn''t really want to help Chu, but didn''t want to see an empty shell in the end, which had no use value. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen takes Jian Mo to meet Jian Jie with Li Xiaoyue. Li Xiaoyue looks at Gu Beichen in some doubt about the news that broke out when she was about to get off work. "Does Mo Mo know?" Li Xiaoyue asked. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, who was packing things with Jian Jie, and nodded. "Is that you?" Li Xiaoyue asked again, with worry in her eyes. Gu Beichen''s thin lips were light and cold, and his eyes were even deeper. "Things were a little complicated in those years, and things came out a little strange..." after a pause, he said calmly, "do you have a chance to contact Zixiao''s party?" Li Xiaoyue nodded. "I have a case cooperation with Tang Yu recently. I should have a chance." "The news came from there..." Gu Beichen said calmly. Li Xiaoyue understood Gu Beichen''s meaning. After thinking about it, she said, "not for you, for foam, I will pay attention..." after a pause, she said solemnly, "Chen Shao, don''t betray her trust in you!" Gu Beichen looked at Li Xiaoyue deeply and didn''t say anything He is not a person who likes to make a commitment. He prefers to express it with action rather than commitment. What happened back then involved another thing. He hasn''t figured out how to do it yet... But obviously, there is more than one person who wants to throw dirty water on him. On the way back, Gu Beichen thought deeply and said, "move to the middle of the mountain tomorrow?" He looked at Jane mo. Jane Mo was puzzled and frowned slightly. "I''m afraid I can''t live here with things connected..." Gu Beichen youyou said, "it''s too close to Xiaojie school and your company. It''s too easy for the media to stay." Jian Mo also understood Gu Beichen''s meaning, but didn''t nod... Now the two people are related to this step, and there''s nothing they can''t understand each other. "Xiao Jie......" Gu Beichen opened his mouth again. "Huh?" Jane Jie blinked her black eyes. "Daddy wants to transfer me, doesn''t he?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Jie sitting in the children''s seat from the rearview mirror, and his thin lips gently raised, "HMM." ¡°OK£¡¡± Jian Jie answered without consideration, "since Mommy is on the side of trusting daddy, I will not object..." he said, and he turned his mouth, as if there was something he regretted. Jane Mo is Jane Jie''s mother after all. She has a delicate mind. "When you are free at the weekend, you can go to the villa one by one..." Jane Jie was guessed through her mind. Her little face was a little crimson. She said awkwardly, "I... where can I mention one by one?" "Well, isn''t that what I''m talking about?" Jane Mo deliberately said, with a smile on her lips, "I just want to say that last time you were invited to her house one by one, this time you can invite her to our house!" Knowing that he had been fooled by mommy, Jianjie immediately stared Jane Mo is proud of her face. She is usually despised by Jane Jie. Finally, she finds something that can make the milk bag head become dull. She is happy! Gu Beichen''s heart was warm... When Jian Mo said "our family", he was grateful. Because her trust Nothing is more important than the trust of the person you love! The car turned around the gate of the Runze Park, and the lamp disappeared after sliding through an arc Just as the lights slipped by in an instant, beside the car next to a street lamp, a man leaned lazily on the door, slightly hung his head, and the slightly long flowing sea covered his deep and evil eyes However, at the moment when Gu Beichen''s car skidded, he looked slightly... A thought-provoking smile came out of the corner of his mouth! Chapter 288 Chu Zixiao stood on the balcony of the room, one cigarette after another in his hand, and the ashtray on one side was full of cigarette butts He tried to numb himself with smoke, but he couldn''t... he had never been sober in his mind at the moment, so that all the information he saw in the villa at that time was in his mind. Because of the competition between Gu Beichen and Gu mohuai, Yujing lake was used as the start-up fund. He was responsible for the project with full power... He schemed to hand over the development right of Yujing lake to Chu group, that is, his father''s company. Later, taking advantage of the internal problems of Yuanda building, which led to the rupture of its capital chain, he was afraid that things would be exposed, and finally forced Jian Zhanfeng to death The whole process is just a dark game within a powerful family. Even, some places are incomprehensible. However, Chu Zixiao is a lawyer As a famous criminal advocate, to some extent, he needs to make the calmest analysis of many evidences or cases. That information, all events and characters are seamlessly connected. If it is a fraud... It''s ridiculous! Who would fake such news? To put it mildly, the law can''t even deal with Gu Beichen. Finally, the emperor''s lawyers will bite back... After all, there is no evidence. What is the final result? The person who gave him the information... Did Jane Mo and Gu Beichen misunderstand and and separate? Isn''t it ridiculous Although, this purpose is what he hopes! Chu Zixiao twisted out the cigarette butts in the ashtray with some anxiety. He looked at the full cigarette butts in the ashtray and his sight deepened From small to large, he can be said to have gone with the wind and water. But since he met Jian Mo in his life, his life seems to have greater expectations... But such expectations are now fragmented. Chu Zixiao slowly clenched his hand, and his eyes became deeper and deeper, like an ancient well, dry and gloomy. The night will pass no matter how long it is, no matter how many dirty things are hidden inside. The next day, when the dawn came, the dawn paved the eastern sky, destined to be another day of extraordinary. "Tut Tut, what is happiness begets sorrow?" Duni said with a sneer, "this is..." she pointed to the news in the newspaper and glanced arrogantly. "If Jane Mo is really the daughter of Yuanda, tut Tut, that picture is too beautiful... I can''t imagine it!" "Nini, you are too bad..." someone said immediately, but his face was also full of schadenfreude smile. "It''s not my loss... That''s what the newspaper says. I''m just explaining it." Duni shrugged her shoulders with her arms around her chest and slightly picked her chin. "Besides, some people... Their eyes are higher than the top. They are arrogant. God can''t see them!" "Pa!" Suddenly, a heavy voice came, showing anger and startling several gossip women. "Fuck!" Big male directly burst out foul language, "Duni, your mouth is so dirty, does your mother know?" "Da Xiong, what do you mean?" Dunny stared. Daxiong Leng hum, "it means... You''ll have to pay it back sooner or later!" Then, he snorted coldly, "don''t think others don''t know about your little shit. You still have the face to tell others right and wrong here!" He snorted coldly again. Under the uncertain face of Duni, he looked back coldly, and then looked at the person in charge of the marketing department, "there are several interior designs of this phase in the folder. Please... Make an appointment with the owner!" Words fall, big male again warned to look at Du Ni, and then turned to leave Until Da Xiong left, Duni gnashed her teeth, stared at her eyes and said angrily, "what... A broken house man, you deserve you can''t catch up with Mo Xiaoya!" Da Xiong went upstairs, and the people in the design department were also whispering about the news Everyone wants to know whether Jane Mo has anything to do with Yuanda, but no one dares to ask. Every time I pass Jianmo''s office at night, my little face is twisted It''s bad enough to abstain from the emperor''s competition draft. Now come here... Can''t sister Mo have a man to love her? Xiangwan came to Sun Ke with drooping shoulders. "Elder sister Ke, why is sister Mo so unlucky?" "Do your own thing!" Sun Ke looked at Jian Mo''s office. "Mo Mo is annoying enough now. You''re still hanging a face for your sister Mo to see. You have to be more annoying?" The sound of "Ding" came from the arrival of the elevator. Xiangwan and Sun Ke subconsciously looked over there and saw the courier from the flower house coming over, "please sign for the flowers of Jane mo." Xiang night''s eyes lit up. When Sun Ke signed for it, she picked her eyebrows and said, "I''ll make sister Mo happy." Then she went to Jian Mo''s office with the bunch of roses in her arms. "Sister mo..." knocked on the door at night and went in, "your admirer flower is here again!" She handed the flowers to her. "This anonymous is really persistent. You and Chen Shao have made it public and sent it..." she smiled and shook her head, "tut Tut, Chen Shao is under great pressure!" Jian Mo smiled, took the flowers, took out the card inside and looked at the strong words on it ¡ª¡ªWhat is the flower language of the rose? Jane Mo was slightly stunned. As a woman, she didn''t seem to know much about these, "what''s the flower language of roses?" She asked, subconsciously looking at the evening. Lying on his desk at night with a flattering face, "missing of love..." ''teng ''once, Jian Mo''s face turned a little red, then took out his mobile phone and sent it to Gu Beichen: missing of love! President Gu: Oh... So you miss me very much? Jane Mo was stunned and suddenly angry: childish! Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised slightly and his slender fingers slid across the screen: public opinion can crush people. I hope my love can support everything for you! Jian Mo''s nose was sour in an instant. Looking at Gu Beichen''s text message, she felt... There was nothing she couldn''t get through! Xiang night has been paying attention to Jane Mo''s dynamics and expression. For a long time, she asked, "sister Mo, you don''t know who sent the flowers?" "Anonymous..." Jane Momo answered lingliangke. Seeing Xiangwan''s blank face, the smile on the corner of his mouth deepened. In the evening, I didn''t turn around. Before I could think deeply, I heard Jian Mo say, "haven''t Xiaoran''s interior design been finished yet?" "It can be done today." A subconscious answer to the night. "Although it''s slow, I saw the prototype drawing last time, which is good..." Jian Mo said. "I''ll discuss the design drawing of the Convention and exhibition center with Andy. Go and see if there''s any problem with the ending of Xiaoran?" "Oh..." Xiang night answered, and then walked out When they got out of the door, they suddenly remembered that they had just been taken by Jane Mo and asked who the flower giver was? Chapter 289 It is strange that the emergency public relations of emperor group did not make any response. Xiao Jing leaned on the side of the table with his hands in his pockets and looked at the DOS interface on Xie Haitian''s computer screen... The whole person was dangerous and cold. On the computer screen, there are instructions sliding rapidly, "didi" sound comes from time to time! "Drop -" Suddenly, a harsh sound came from the computer. In an instant, the screen turned into a blue screen! "Shit..." Xie Haitian scolded angrily, "I was anti tracked and had no time to run. I was directly implanted with a Trojan horse by the other party!" As he spoke, he turned his head to Xiao Jing, and his face was not very good. Xiao Jingwei narrowed his eyes and smiled at the corners of his mouth, "it seems... The other party is very powerful?" "Top hackers!" Xie Haitian shrugged, "there may be more than one!" Xiao Jing''s sight is deeper and deeper The other party seems to know when they will act, and even take precautions against all the entry points. The emperor''s electronic department is tracking down. He has another line to Xie Haitian Obviously, it doesn''t work! "What a headache..." Xiao Jing held his forehead with one hand and wiped coldly on one side of the corner of his mouth. Xie Haitian swallowed secretly, "brother Jing, what should I do next?" "Let''s do this first..." Xiao Jing calmly dropped his hand and got up. "The other party left the release clues, but it''s just to deceive us... It''s going on. It''s meaningless." Then he turned and walked out Sitting in the car, Xiao Jing didn''t start the car, but he was vaguely worried. I don''t know why, such a trick reminds him of another person A person he doesn''t want to mention except Gu mohuai! One day passed like this. When Jane Mo got off work, she saw the media waiting outside Fortunately, when I went to work in the morning, I listened to the suggestion of milk bag and drove the car! Just got on the bus and didn''t start, there was a pleasant piano sound from the mobile phone Jian Mo took it out and saw that it was su Junli. For a while, she warmly picked it up. "If you also came to ask me about what I reported..." she sighed helplessly with a smile, "can you not ask?" Su Jun''s eyes were far-reaching, and his mouth was filled with a gentle smile, "no..." He opened his mouth gently, as soft and charming as a violin, with a stable magnetism. "I just want to tell you... Since you choose to stand by his side, then go on firmly." After a pause, Su Jun continued, "maybe he will show you another rainbow..." Jane Mo took a deep breath with a slightly sour nose and said with a smile, "thank you..." she smiled at the corner of her mouth, "in this life, having your support around me is my biggest gain." "When I''m sad, I can comfort... It''s good!" Su Jun smiled from the corner of his mouth, "Mo Mo, believe what you believe!" ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen sat in the car. Xiao Jing got off to pick up Jian Jie, and then went back to Runze garden together. The emergency channel of Runze park has not been opened yet The media didn''t intercept Gu Beichen''s car at the door... We didn''t expect that Runze Park was so close to Xiangyu. Jian Mo would drive. He didn''t react until the car came in, but he couldn''t get in. He had to keep watching. There''s nothing to clean up. Just take away the things and books designed by Jian Mo on weekdays, as well as Jian Jie''s books and the manual of changing the Department "Wait!" When she came to the door, Jane Mo suddenly said, and then the man returned to the house and went to the place where the jewelry was placed. Take out the jewelry box printed with magic on the box and open it The goal is the set of "falling in love" designed by her and made into a finished product by Gu Beichen. The corners of Jian Mo''s mouth smiled, and the memory surged up like a long river That year, she was just ignorant of him. That year, she was moved by his tenderness That year, she fell in love with a man named Gu Beichen! Jane Mo smiled, closed the jewelry box and took the "falling in love" away A family of three left this temporary home and went to Gu Beichen''s real home... Mid level villa. "Daddy, living in the middle of the mountain, won''t it be very troublesome for me to learn?" Jane asked. Gu Beichen smiled. "If mommy and I are very busy, let the driver see you off, huh?" Jian Jie glanced, knowing that there was no way, "in fact, I can live on campus!" "No!" Jane Mo immediately rejected it. Jane Jie rolled her eyes. "Don''t you think it''s more convenient for me to live on campus?" For Jian Jie''s independence, Jian Mo is a little confused She is Chinese and a Chinese mother. She has an attachment to her child... She doesn''t want to let him live in school at such a young age. Jian Jie glanced at Gu Beichen. "Daddy, everyone lives on campus..." he told the truth. Today, he checked the school that daddy said on the Internet. All of them live in school! Gu Beichen looks at Jian mo. in fact, for today''s situation, living on campus is indeed more convenient than living at home As things evolve, he doesn''t want people to know about Jane Jie for the time being. Jane Mo also knew that she was a little willful. Looking at the urgency on Jane Jie''s face, she wanted to experience the appearance of living on campus. She couldn''t help drooping her shoulders, "I have to think about it!" Jane Jie shrugs and compromises! It''s better to think about it than to refuse it all at once Xiao Jing looked at the three people in the back seat from the rearview mirror, and his eyes were getting darker... How good would it be if the three members of a family could continue to be so happy? "Daddy, did the people in your company find out about mommy''s design comparison last time?" Jane Jie is a little concerned about this problem. For him, although he thinks Mommy is stupid, Mommy''s design is the best. "There''s a direction..." Gu Beichen said, looking at Jian Mo, "there should be an answer soon." Jian Mo and Gu Beichen looked at each other and smiled... Everything was silent. Car, turn into the road leading to the mid level villa. Compared with the villa area like lanzeyuan, the mid level mountain is a little private. This is a symbol of wealth and power in Los Angeles. You can''t live here without one. After passing several scattered villas, there is only one white building with British style left in front. Xiao Jing turned the steering wheel and went in. Here, Jane Mo came for the first time. There was a car parked there in the parking space. Xiao Jing frowned slightly, "Chen Shao, it seems that someone came to the villa..." This is Gu Beichen''s private place. There are people on guard around. Ordinary people can''t come in... Those who can come in must be the people around Gu Beichen. When they got out of the car, Gu Beichen took a deep look at the Bentley and went to the villa with Jian Mo and Jian Jie. ¡°Surprise¡­¡­¡± At the moment Gu Beichen opened the door, excited laughter came. But, in an instant, the voice stopped, and then he looked at Jian Mo, and his eyes suddenly widened, "Sumer, why are you here?" Chapter 290 Jane and Sumer look alike. Many people who have met them will sigh at first sight. Jane Mo looked at the lady in front of her and thought to herself: does she know her mother? She frowned slightly and looked at the woman in front of her who couldn''t see her real age. She couldn''t help but speculate secretly. "Mom?" Gu Beichen slightly frowned and shouted, and then looked at Gu Moyuan, who was also stunned and looked at Jian Mo, "Dad, when did you come back? Don''t you mean there are still a few days?" Jane Mo glanced at Gu Beichen, with consternation in her eyes Are they Gu Beichen''s parents? Because when the two got married six years ago, Gu Moyuan took Cen Lanxi around the world. From beginning to end... Jian Mo didn''t see them. In addition, their marriage is a contractual marriage, and Jian Mo has never paid attention to previous reports It can be said that both Gu Moyuan and her husband and wife are just legends to each other. "Aren''t you Sumer?" CEN Lanxi suddenly said again. She asked with a cold face, "who are you?" Gu Beichen gently took Jian Mo''s shoulder blade and said, "Mom, she''s Jian mo... My wife!" CEN Lanxi seemed to be more surprised than just now. "Brush" for a moment, and looked at Gu Beichen in amazement, "what''s her name?" Her voice was still a little hurried. Gu Beichen said, "Jane foam!" After a pause, he continued, "Jane Zhanfeng and Sumer''s daughter..." "..." Cen Lanxi''s body began to tremble. She wanted to say something. Her mouth kept moving, but she couldn''t say anything Just when Gu Moyuan frowned, cen Lanxi didn''t know whether he couldn''t accept such an answer. He suddenly blacked his eyes... Fainted. "Mom?" Gu Beichen hurried forward to help. However, Gu Moyuan stepped up and held Cen Lanxi''s soft body. Everything came so fast that Jian Mo and Jian Jie were not in a state. At last, Gu Beichen hurried upstairs with Cen Lanxi in his arms, and was stunned in situ "Mommy..." "Huh?" "You''re miserable!" Jane Jie shook her little head and sighed. Jane Mo tilted her head and hung her eyes. She was confused with Jane Jie''s eyes, which were also tilted up. "Your mother-in-law doesn''t like you!" Jian Jie said the root of the problem, "I''m worried about your future relationship between mother-in-law and daughter-in-law!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and frowned. Why does she think the problem is with her mother? At that time, I felt that Gu Beichen''s mother was obviously when she was a mother, so I was stunned... When I heard that she was the daughter of Jian Zhanfeng and Su Mo, it seemed that I couldn''t accept it at once. Jane Mo looked blankly upstairs, and the corners of her mouth lit up Something gradually took root in her heart and made her uncomfortable. "That..." Xiao Jing grinned at what Jian Jie said, and his subordinates rubbed the tip of their nose consciously. "In fact, the master and wife... Still get along well." Jian Jie blinked his black pupil and looked at Xiao Jing. There was obvious disdain in his eyes Xiao Jing is very depressed. Isn''t he comforting them? The atmosphere downstairs was somewhat treacherous, and the bedroom upstairs was even more dignified. CEN Lanxi is in a coma. Gu Beichen has called Li Yunze Gu Beichen leaned on the table indifferently. There was no emotion on his cold face. He was so indifferent... But his eagle eyes knew it well. Gu Moyuan covered Cen Lanxi with a quilt before looking at Gu Beichen. "She... Is the wife you married before?" "Yes." Gu Beichen responded indifferently. Gu Moyuan frowned in an instant. After years, he still didn''t sink into his fierce eyes. "Why?" "At first, I didn''t know she was Jane Zhanfeng''s daughter..." Gu Beichen told the truth, "I just met her at that time and got married." After a pause, he continued, "and then fell in love... No way!" "Beichen..." Gu Moyuan''s voice was dignified. "Do you understand what you''re doing?" "Why don''t I understand?" Gu Beichen looked at Gu Moyuan more deeply. "I know very well... I love Jane mo. in this life, I can only be with her!" "Is she sure it''s just you?" Gu Moyuan sneered. Gu Beichen smiled, but the smile was too light for people to notice, "Dad, I love Jane Mo, so... I believe her!" Then he got up calmly, "I''ll go downstairs first... Mom suddenly, she and Xiaojie will be very worried." After a pause, Gu Beichen looked slightly sideways, "Oh, by the way... Xiao Jie is the son of Jian Mo and me, that is, your grandson!" He didn''t say anything, but just lifted his feet and walked out. It seems that what I just said is just to inform. Whether Gu Moyuan will accept it or not is their business, not his business! It''s quiet downstairs. Xiao Jing doesn''t know what to say. Neither Jian Mo nor Jian Jie is easy to deceive... He doesn''t want to make Chen Shao unhappy because of himself, and then operate on him! "Daddy?" Jian Jie''s eyes lit up when he saw Gu Beichen coming downstairs. Jian Mo looked back and looked at Gu Beichen''s deep vision Gu Beichen stopped slowly in the middle of the stairs and looked at the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth. Gradually, self blame overflowed from the depths of his eyes. She was originally asked to move to the middle of the mountain to avoid the siege of the media, but I didn''t expect... Now it makes her feel more depressed. Once again, Gu Beichen walked down, "let the servant get some food first, huh?" "That..." Jane Mo pursed her lower lip. "How''s mom?" "Old trouble." Gu Beichen raised his hand and gently pulled down Jian Mo''s hair curtain, "don''t worry, huh?" Jane Mo wants to ask Gu Beichen if his parents know her mother, but... They didn''t ask. "Xiao Jing..." "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing hurried forward. "Let the servant prepare dinner and bring Yunze''s..." Gu Beichen said, "you can eat here tonight." "Well, good!" Xiao Jing answered, and then turned to explain to the servant. Li Yunze came very soon. It was said that Cen Lanxi fainted. He was a little surprised... After all, Gu Beichen said he wouldn''t come back until the end of the month. It hasn''t arrived yet. "Li Shao..." Xiao Jingren was outside and said hello when he saw Li Yunze coming. "How''s your aunt?" Li Yunze asked as he walked. "Seeing Chen''s young wife and a grandson suddenly, I fainted happily..." Xiao Jing shrugged and said with some evil spirit. Li Yunze looked at Xiao Jing and then stopped, "happy... Faint?" Xiao Jing shrugged again. Li Yunze felt something strange and frowned slightly before entering the villa However, when he saw Gu Beichen''s son in the rumor, he was stunned and stunned. "I wipe," Li Yunze swallowed secretly, "Beichen, if anyone says this is not your son, I have to hurry with who!" Chapter 291 Gu Beichen slipped a touch of disdain in the depths of his eagle eyes. Who said to arrange DNA test for him at the beginning? "Hello, uncle!" Seeing that he was Gu Beichen''s friend, Jian Jie immediately took out xiaozhengtai''s ability to sell cute, smiled politely and shouted. Li Yunze''s heart was instantly transformed by the cry... He couldn''t help looking at Gu Beichen, and his eyes were full of jealousy. Shit, why are all good things spread by Gu Beichen? Jane Mo has such a good woman and such a good son "That..." Jian Mo pointed upstairs, then looked at Li Yunze and asked, "do you want to go upstairs first?" Then she smiled, "the milk bag is here. You can watch it later!" Jian Jie is very dissatisfied with the fact that there are outsiders and Jian Mo still calls himself "milk bag". And... What is "casual viewing"? He''s not an animal in the zoo! However, it''s OK to think that the atmosphere is not suitable for correction at this time "I''ll take you up!" Gu Beichen said, and then looked at Jian mo. Jane Mo said she understood and nodded with a smile. The message in her eyes was: I don''t matter, mom is important! For her understanding, Gu Beichen''s heart is getting softer and softer... Such a woman is so generous and considerate that he can''t help loving her. Li Yunze has checked Cen Lanxi for half an hour, and Cen Lanxi has no intention of waking up. "Yunze, how''s your aunt?" Gu Moyuan asked hurriedly when he saw that Li Yunze had received the stethoscope. "Aunt is not in good health. Now she is in a coma because she is stimulated..." Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen, and then said to Gu Moyuan, "uncle, I suggest taking my aunt to a more quiet place to live, which will be better for her health." "Lanxi and I just came to see Beichen. After all, we haven''t come back for more than six years..." Gu Moyuan looked at Gu Beichen. "Later, Lanxi and I will go to the manor." Feeling that something was wrong with the atmosphere, Li Yunze frowned slightly and didn''t ask much. He just explained what Xia Cen Lanxi needed to pay attention to and went downstairs first. Gu Beichen and Gu Moyuan confronted each other, didn''t say anything, and turned around and walked out Just as the talent arrived at the bedroom door, a voice came from behind. "Beichen..." Gu Moyuan''s face was dignified, "you..." "Dad!" Gu Beichen interrupted Gu Moyuan, "if you''re talking about Jian Mo with me, I don''t want to talk about it. There''s no reason for us to bear the things of the previous generation." After a pause, Gu Beichen slightly tilted his head and glanced back, "if you want to say something about the second uncle... I''m sorry, I''m afraid I can only be hostile to him in this life!" Gu Beichen astringed his eyes, "wait a minute, I''ll ask the servant to bring food up..." he said, then lifted his step and left the bedroom. Originally, it was a happy thing to move today, but it became a little dignified because Cen Lanxi fainted. At the banquet, Li Yunze had been "chatting" with Jian Jie. Finally, he was very happy. "Beichen, Jian mo..." Li Yunze looked at them. "Why don''t you leave your son to my daughter in the future?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth. Gu Beichen glanced at him coldly, "a man who doesn''t even have a woman, daughter? Do you change out?" Li Yunze is very rare at the moment. As soon as Gu Beichen said so, he quit immediately. "Why can''t I change? I can''t adopt a daughter if I don''t have a woman?" "But I don''t want to be positioned by others in my life!" Jian Jie''s voice suddenly came. Black pupil looked at Li Yunze with disdain, as if he was very dissatisfied with his suggestion. "..." Li Yunze immediately stared at Jian Jie with a dark face. Jianjie shrugged his small shoulders, then quietly continued to eat, but... His eyes occasionally glanced upstairs, and then shrunk his mouth. After dinner, Li Yunze left Jian Jie went to the room that had been arranged in advance to pack up things. There was no accident. As long as Jian Mo agreed, he could live on campus... He was still looking forward to the life experience of living on campus. After taking a bath, Jane Mo came out and saw Gu Beichen in the room. "Did mom wake up?" Gu Beichen pulled Jane Mo close to her arms, let her sit on her legs, closed her eyes, and gently smelled the body fragrance after bathing on her, "don''t worry, I have everything... Huh?" Jane Mo nodded, lowered her eyes and asked, "I just don''t like it at first sight. I''m stuffed with heart!" Gu Beichen raised his eyes and smiled at his thin lips. "I didn''t like you at first sight?" "And then?" Jane Mo hooked Gu Beichen''s neck and asked with a coquettish eyebrow. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep. "Later, it was more than love, it was love..." Words fall, Gu Beichen has already sent to himself with the back of Jian Mo''s head, and his lips are hot and covered with soft The lingering and hot kiss swore the enthusiasm in each other''s hearts. When Jian Mo was about to be kissed out of breath, Gu Beichen let go of her "Take a bath with me, huh?" Gu Beichen''s voice was low and gloomy, with danger in it. "I just finished washing..." Jane said with a slight gasp. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, "wash again..." when he said that, he had picked up Jian Mo and walked to the bathroom. The huge bathtub is more than enough to accommodate two people, and the surging water overflows to the outside floor from time to time because of propulsion The sound of water and breathing overlapped together, combined with the steam, filled the bathroom and blurred the line of sight. Gu Beichen held Jian Mo from behind, pushed forward step by step, and kissed carefully, "why did you cut your hair?" "Because..." just as Jane Mo wanted to speak, she stopped because of her palpitation. She angrily bit Gu Beichen''s hand holding her. While enjoying the happiness he brought to her, she said, "isn''t there a song... That if you want to cut off your previous concerns, you need to cut your hair short?" "Childish..." Gu Beichen said in a low and enchanting voice, advancing more fiercely, "keep your hair, huh?" "Do you men have long hair complex?" Jian Mo''s thoughts were about to disperse when Gu Beichen got her. She was afraid that she promised something she didn''t know under such circumstances and tried to stay awake. Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo''s sensitive earrings and said in a low voice: "I don''t care about others... I just like your charming appearance when you have long hair." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she was happy and asked: "now it''s not charming?" "Now you..." Gu Beichen rolled out and turned Jian Mo over. While facing the attack, he just said the second half of the sentence, "it''s a little difficult to deal with!" "How can there be..." Jane Mo stared angrily. "Isn''t it?" "Of course not..." Jane Mo gritted her teeth and said angrily, "you took care of it in a few days after I returned home!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips suddenly raised an evil smile. That smile instantly filled the bottom of his eyes At the sight of Jian Mo, she stared angrily: "you dig a hole and jump for me!" Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but occupied Jian Mo''s body and mind with the most overbearing tenderness and heat... In this way, let her intoxicate! Chapter 292 At night, everything in the world has fallen into a deep sleep. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, who had been tossed and slept by herself. After a kiss on her forehead, Gu Beichen covered her with a quilt. Then he put on his pajamas and walked out with light hands and feet. "Chen Shao!" Aunt Luo, the housekeeper of the mid level villa, said softly, "young master Jie has fallen asleep." Gu Beichen nodded and then turned to Cen Lanxi''s house. Standing at the door, Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly deep, and then pushed the door and went in CEN Lanxi just woke up and his face was still a little bad. Maybe he was too excited before. The whole person lost his luster and was a little haggard. "It''s impossible for Jane Mo to enter the door of the family!" When Cen Lanxi saw Gu Beichen coming in, he immediately clenched his teeth and said. Gu Beichen looked indifferent and stood at the door without moving. "She is already my wife... She has entered the door of Gu''s house!" "Divorce!" CEN Lanxi said angrily. Gu Beichen looked at shangcen Lanxi, "Mom, it''s impossible!" "Gu Beichen, are you going to kill me?" CEN Lanxi roared like he was going crazy. Gu Beichen is glad that the sound insulation effect of the villa is still good. In addition, cen Lanxi has just woke up and doesn''t have so much strength "Mom, you and Jian Mo are both important people in my life. If we can''t live in peace..." Gu Beichen''s voice was slightly heavy, "turn a blind eye!" "Impossible!" CEN Lanxi also roared angrily, "Gu Beichen, I will become like this. Why? And your little aunt... Don''t you know?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "Mom, how many times do you want me to say it?" He was a little tired, and his thin lips were slightly cold. "What was the truth of the original thing? The law has not ruled. Is it really appropriate for you to fill in Jane''s house so decisively?" "I don''t care..." Cen Lanxi gritted her teeth. "Anyway, I can''t see the existence of Jane''s family in my eyes. Especially..." she looked at Gu Moyuan, who has been silent all the time. "It''s su Mo''s daughter!" Gu Beichen knows that this must be the result tonight. One side is his mother and the other is the one he loves... It''s him who is embarrassed. Jane Mo saw his embarrassment. Even after being curious all night, she didn''t ask her mother why she knew Sumer and had a prejudice against her Because of her understanding, he felt more guilty. "So... Xiao Jie''s grandson and mother don''t recognize it?" Gu Beichen said softly. Jian Mo and Gu Beichen had a son. Gu Moyuan said it when Cen Lanxi woke up. CEN Lanxi said, "Xiao Jie is the child of his family. How can he be taken away by a cheap woman?" For Cen Lanxi''s description of Jian Mo, Gu Beichen''s face was not good at the moment. "Mom, the woman in your mouth is your son''s wife and your grandson''s mother..." his voice was slightly Lin. "I''ll come now and just explain my ideas." After a slight pause, Gu Beichen''s eyes slipped past Gu Moyuan and fell on Cen Lanxi, "when I was kidnapped... I had only one idea at that moment!" CEN Lanxi''s heart suddenly "clattered". Everyone knew that the kidnapping could not be mentioned. It was Gu Beichen''s pain... A pain that no one could mention. At this moment, he was mentioning that he first tore the scar, and then grabbed a handful of salt and sprinkled it on his wound! Gu Beichen slightly clenched his hand. Only he knew how the nightmare in his memory had devastated him, and no one could understand it. "I just wanted to... Die!" Gu Beichen''s breath was a little short. It was not painful to describe. It was that all his will to live was destroyed. "I don''t believe I can stand up..." Gu Beichen''s breathing became more and more urgent. "Mom, I thought I had no heart... Do you understand?" Even at the beginning and Shen Chu, he can make use of it... It''s not love or not that can explain, but his surface is impermanent, but he has no heart! But for Jane Mo, he knows what he wants, and he knows how painful it is to give in Even when he pursued her recently, he realized that he could still be happy! CEN Lanxi stepped back two steps with a soft body, "what happened at the beginning?" Gu Moyuan also looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously In fact, few people know what happened after the kidnapping... At least, as parents, they don''t know. Gu Beichen, because of his forbearance, has already made a "quack" sound in his clenched hand, which has become particularly treacherous in the dignified room. "My heart... Awakened for Jane Mo!" Gu Beichen made a self mockery at the corners of his mouth, as if he had instantly removed the light and indifference of all the emperor''s blessings on him. He was just a child in front of his parents, "Mom, if you want to kill me... Then you can continue!" Then he restrained his eyes, turned and opened the door of the bedroom and went out Standing at the door, Gu Beichen didn''t move, but the ink pupil fell far in front. As far as he could see, everything was silent except the faint light from the dim wall lamp... It was like a door to hell. If he took a step forward, he would die without a place to bury. Something in his body seemed to be evacuated. Gu Beichen leaned against the wall, his head hung down, and black fog filled his eyes... Gradually enveloped his whole body. "Don''t come here..." "Bang Dang!" The sound of the iron chain echoed in the open room, making a dull sound, and laughter came, showing the madness of debauchery. Gu Beichen looked at the people approaching him with frightened eyes, and showed greedy eyes to him one by one. That kind of sight was like he was delicious, tempting them. "You dare not listen to Qin Shao''s words... Didn''t you ask for it on purpose?" The men''s wild laughter came, and the sight of Gu Beichen, who had been forced to a dead corner, was full of greed under ambiguity. Gu Beichen had already retreated and could not retreat. He looked at the approaching men in panic and began to breathe quickly Leaning against the cold steel wall, he knew... Shi Shaoqin was watching him somewhere, waiting for his mercy. Sweat, drop by drop, slid down his hair, across the wound on his cheek, stinging his nerve. Several big men are already excited. For them... Such a delicate big boy is what they like. Gu Beichen, as they approached, his eyes gradually overflowed with panic He didn''t want to beg for mercy, but "Shi Shaoqin, you won!" Gu Beichen roared. At that moment, he seemed to have sold his soul. With a bang, the iron door was opened in time, and a tall man stood there Light came in from outside and hit the man. Because of the backlight, the man''s face and expression can''t be seen in the iron house... The torture tools inside can only be vaguely reflected, just like the soul. "Chen, I said... You will compromise!" Shi Shaoqin lightly drew a faint radian on the corner of his mouth. That radian was so charming that people couldn''t move their eyes, but they felt a chill on the soles of their feet! Chapter 293 The soft voice has no tone, as if it came from hell. Gu Beichen thought he had forgotten such a memory, but now when he remembered it, it still clearly made his head ache He closed his eyes tightly and shook his head desperately, trying to get rid of the unbearable picture. Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes. The bottom of his eyes was dark. There was scarlet blood around his eyes, which was as wild as a beast. Three months to escape from that abnormal person and place No one can understand what kind of mood he used to face the trauma of three months after three months! Breathing gradually became messy. There was a faint voice in the house. It was Cen Lanxi''s sharp voice Gu Beichen glanced at the closed door and finally... Dragged his weak body as if filled with lead to the master bedroom. Jian Mo on the bed slept soundly, with a shallow smile on her mouth That kind of smile is like a hand that can heal Gu Beichen''s wound, which makes him greedy. Lying beside Jane Mo, gently put her arm under her neck, and then took her into her arms The night shrouded and precipitated everything, but there was no way to suppress Gu Beichen''s shivering under his indifference. "Ah Chen..." Suddenly, Jane Mo called softly. Gu Beichen''s body suddenly stiffened and thought he had woken her up. Later, the deep ink pupil coagulated Jane Mo and saw that she just arched in his arms and then slept safely. Only then did she breathe a sigh of relief He didn''t want her to see him in a mess Gu Beichen''s self mockery on the edge of his thin lips spread deeper and deeper, only listening to his shallow whisper, "Mo''er, I spoil you with my life''s love... I just want you to be so firm to me!" ¡­¡­ The music in the noisy heavy metal bar was still deafening. Mo Shaochen looked at Shen Chu gradually and looked deeply, "did you do the design of emperor Jianmo?" Shen Chu looked at Mo Shaochen indifferently, hissed, then took a beer, opened it, looked up and drank it. Mo Shaochen grabbed the bottle and said, "Shen Chu, do you have to be so mean to yourself?" "It''s none of your business..." Shen Chu sneered, then picked up his bag and wanted to leave. Mo Shaochen put down the money and chased out, "Shen Chu!" Shen Chu stopped, clenched his hand, then turned around and said with a sneer, "yes, that''s what I did... Got the answer, are you satisfied?" "Shen Chu!" Mo Shaochen shouted again, gritting his teeth. "Mo Shaochen, I like Gu Beichen all my life. I can''t get it, but I don''t want others to get it..." Shen Chu sneered. "Doesn''t he like Jian Mo? Doesn''t he like to deal with things for her silently? Ok... I''ll fight with Jian Mo every day... I see how much he can deal with?" Mo Shaochen was disappointed, "you lie!" "Ha ha..." Shen Chu turned her eyes. "Mo Shaochen, what do you think of me? If I don''t say it, you think it''s me! I admit it, you say I''m lying..." she sneered at the corner of her lips. "You love someone. It''s really tangled. You''re not like your lawyer at all." Then, Shen Chu mockingly converged his sight, and then staggered away with some vain steps However, at the moment of turning around, all the disguises on her face cracked, and the smile on her mouth became astringent. Just let her fall Whether unwilling or angry, treat her as doing good every day... No harm to Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen didn''t move. Looking at Shen Chu''s back, his face was full of complex emotions... It was like something was pressing him out of breath in the position of his heart. "Senior student?" Suddenly, a voice of surprise came, full of excitement. Mo Shaochen subconsciously looked at the voice and saw Li Xiaoyue coming "Senior, is it really you?" Li Xiaoyue''s mouth was filled with a smile because of excitement. Mo Shaochen smiled. Although his smile was a little stiff, "Why are you here so late?" "When a case is busy, the party''s home is nearby... I''m going to eat in front." Li Xiaoyue said with a smile. Mo Shaochen looked back. There was a community night market over there. "Let''s go... I didn''t eat either." As soon as Li Xiaoyue heard this, she suddenly brightened her eyes, "OK, OK!" She smiled at the corners of her mouth, and even her face was stained with a strange crimson... I don''t know if she was too happy. She didn''t see Mo Shaochen''s wrong at all. When they arrived at the noodle stall, Li Xiaoyue asked for two bowls of noodles and said, "boss, one bowl doesn''t need pepper." Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue suspiciously and listened to her smile and said, "you can''t eat spicy food?" "You know?" Mo Shaochen was a little surprised. "The deeds of the senior students, from cases to living habits, are the top posts on the forum of the law department of Luoyang University..." Li Xiaoyue said with a smile, "I''m afraid that few of the law department don''t know?" When Mo Shaochen heard this, he could not laugh or cry, but it was rare... His gloomy mood just now was much better. While eating noodles, they chatted "Has the matter of Jane Mo''s design been solved?" Asked Mo Shaochen. "That girl is born to recruit villains!" Li Xiaoyue shook her head. "There''s no way. She looks good and has strong working ability... She has a rich and handsome man like Gu Beichen around her. There''s no problem if she doesn''t attract envy." Mo Shaochen couldn''t help laughing, "you don''t seem to worry?" "She can handle it!" Li Xiaoyue shrugged, "as long as I trust her and support her..." Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue with deep eyes. He didn''t know why. Now he agrees with the saying that "birds of a feather flock together and people flock together". Jian Mo''s side... It should be a casual person like Li Xiaoyue. The next day, the weather in Los Angeles changed a little. It was gloomy. When Jian Mo got up, Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi had left... She didn''t know when they left. "Mommy, have you considered letting me live on campus?" Jane asked at the breakfast table. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen, thought about it, and finally nodded Gu Beichen''s mother doesn''t seem to accept her very much. If something happens when the milk bag is at home, it''s not good to leave a bad impression on the milk bag. When Mommy saw that Jane''s eyes were ready to be worshipped by her father, she looked at her subconsciously and agreed. Jane Mo suddenly died of depression. Does she know democracy? The son raised himself for four years and finally kissed Lao Tzu who had only met for a month. She was so sad Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen angrily, with a proud smile on his mouth, and bit the toast angrily, just like eating Gu Beichen''s meat. Chapter 294 After breakfast, Gu Beichen sent Jian Jie to school For convenience, Jian Mo didn''t drive the familiar "Hyundai" before she went to work, but Gu Beichen kindly prepared a silver gray Audi with less publicity and good performance for her. The two cars went out together and finally separated at the foot of the mountain. "Daddy, will grandma like Mommy?" Jane Jie asked with some distress. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, but he said faintly, "I live with her all my life. I like it... Huh?" He doesn''t want to cheat children, and he doesn''t need to cheat! Jane Jie is very smart. If he doesn''t say anything, it doesn''t mean he can''t see or feel anything. When mom first saw that Jane Mo was very similar to Sumer, she was doomed that she would not like Jane mo Jian Jie kept his mouth shut. "Although he was a little unhappy, daddy''s words still made sense..." he didn''t continue to struggle with this problem. Gu Beichen sent Jian Jie to Spencer school, which is an aristocratic school. Naturally, it is second to none in terms of security or confidentiality. "Chen Shao, don''t worry," said the headmaster with a flattering smile, "we will keep Xiaojie''s identity confidential." Gu Beichen had no expression on his cold face, his eagle eyes were slightly deep, and said calmly: "for the projects previously applied by your school to the emperor, you can sign them next week!" As soon as the headmaster heard this, he immediately brightened his eyes and said flatteringly: "with the support of the emperor, I believe the school education will be more perfect." Gu Beichen ignored the headmaster''s flattery, just nodded indifferently, and then got up and left the school. The phone vibrated when the talent sat in the car. Gu Beichen took out his eyes and picked up the call. "Did you find someone?" Light Yi''s voice was cold and gloomy, and a pair of eagle eyes were cold and bloodthirsty. "President, I found it..." Shang Junhao said in a somewhat angry voice. "Who?" Gu Beichen asked coldly. Shang Junhao said: "Ma Dongcheng, first-class designer of the design department!" Gu Beichen''s eyes narrowed slightly. In an instant, the bottom of his eyes emitted a cold light... If I remember correctly, he was also the person who originally designed the viaduct across the East China Sea and the South China Sea! "He and two other people were in charge of drawing lots before," Shang Junhao said angrily with forbearance. "In addition, it was found that there was an extra sum of money in his account recently... Even a record of going to and from a city Fei night casino over the weekend!" "Yes." Gu Beichen responded coldly, without much emotional orders, "everything is as usual, don''t scare the snake..." "I understand!" Shang Junhao answered. Gu Beichen hung up the phone and his sight was dark. According to the benefits given by the emperor and everyone''s personal value, it is generally difficult to be poached from the emperor, especially from the main personnel For their own future, petty profits are not easy to play the role of temptation. It seems... My second uncle has written a lot of books. "Haven''t you heard from Jane yet?" Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing driving in front and asked. Xiao Jing looked back from the rearview mirror, "no... It''s like disappearing out of thin air." After a pause, he continued, "Xiao Nan is going to Holland." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but looked out of the window Among the five people around the Dragon owl, one followed his Xiao Jing. Among the other four, Xiao Nan was the best at news. The news about Emperor and Yuanda is still spreading outside, and more and more people discuss Jian Mo online Even, gradually, more and more people abuse Jian mo. What "show love with the enemy who killed his father all day. Such unfilial children as Jane Mo should die!" "Does Jane mo use love to influence the enemy who killed her father?" Such remarks, like locusts crossing the border, spread uncontrollably. Because Xiangyu is in Lingyu international, the voice of discussion is more serious in the whole Lingyu international office building. "Seriously, I really want to go up and interview Jian mo... Her father was forced to death by the emperor. Now she has become Gu Beichen''s wife. Is it another kind of compensation?" "Ha ha, you are too bad..." "I met her in the elevator at that time... The whole person looked like someone who was all right!" "Of course... If you don''t think about it, people will die, but now she is chenshao''s wife, and the days will grow in the future? Is it because a dead man can''t live with himself?" "Tut Tut, now some women are really annoying... Sleeping with an enemy, I really want to know what her psychology is." "Isn''t it reported that the Buddha used to cut meat to feed the eagle, but now Jane Moai uses it to reform the murderer... Ha ha..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Mu Xiaoran stood at the door of the bathroom, listening to the people inside laughing and mocking, gradually pursed his mouth and stared at the open door Because of anger, it''s like trying to see a hole in the door. The sound inside continued, and mu Xiaoran finally couldn''t help it She pushed the door open vigorously. Because of too much force, the door bounced on the wall and made a "bang", startling the gossip girls in the bathroom. Mu Xiaoran walked in with staring eyes and clenched his fist, and looked angrily at the people inside. It was like... It was as if they were talking about her. People look at me, I look at yours, one by one, as if they were shocked by mu Xiaoran, and I don''t know how to react. "Thanks to all of you who are still college graduates... Out of society, you are stained with the smell of shit!" Mu Xiaoran stared and said, "your parents don''t know that you are so immoral? Otherwise, you must beat your chest and say that your tutoring is not good!" "Who are you? How do you talk? Your tutor is good at talking. Your mouth stinks... Did you eat Xiang?" Someone immediately retorted angrily. "Oh, so you ate Xiang?" Mu Xiaoran said with a cold sneer, "I said how can my mouth smell so bad!" "You..." the woman didn''t expect mu Xiaoran to fight back her scolding directly. For a moment, she didn''t know how to react. However, she didn''t know how to react, but others knew... Suddenly, you said one thing to me, and the bathroom was very busy. Mu Xiaoran is very clever in Xiangyu, which is also because he is an intern. But she is a little pepper in school... Everyone familiar with her knows that she has a hot personality. At present, a person has no loss in speaking to several women... In a few minutes, the gossiping women stared one by one. "A jealous face can''t be covered by several layers of powder..." Mu Xiaoran hissed coldly, and then turned out of the bathroom. When she went out, she remembered... She came down to the bathroom because the bathroom upstairs was full. Thinking, she secretly gritted her teeth and had to go to the bathroom next floo Chapter 295 Emperor group. After Gu Beichen arrived at the company, he held several meetings in succession. At each meeting, senior executives were scolded. The pressure of the whole emperor seemed to suddenly become depressed. Everyone was doing things with their heart, for fear that if they were not careful, the anger would spread to themselves. Gu Beichen stood in front of the office window, with a cigarette burning in his hanging hand. The curl of smoke rose, and disappeared without covering his cold face. The mobile phone vibrated wildly on the desk, like a feather duster, scratching people''s hearts. Gu Beichen''s thin lips have become a straight line. He turns around First, I looked at the mobile phone shaking on the desk, then walked over, twisted out the cigarette butts in the ashtray and picked up the mobile phone After seeing the caller ID, Gu Beichen picked it up, "grandma." Grandma Gu smiled, "listen... I''m not in a good mood?" She asked deliberately. "Grandma asked knowingly?" Gu Beichen said softly. Grandma Gu smiled a little bigger. "When your mother comes back, this is the first level... Why, she can''t hold her breath?" "How?" Gu Beichen picked his eyebrows, and the ink pupil gradually became deep and bottomless, "that''s not my temperament!" "Alas..." grandma Gu sighed and said, "your parents don''t support you, grandma supports you. If Jane Mo is the happiness you want... Grandma is always on your side." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were so indifferent, but one side of his thin lips slightly raised an arc, "grandma, I promised my grandfather that I would try to stand up... I did it. I promised him that I would also try to be happy... Now, I''m trying." When grandma Gu heard Gu Beichen say this, tears twinkled in her eyes, "your grandfather and I saw your efforts..." she choked. Because the tears blurred her eyes and looked at Grandpa Gu''s tombstone, the corners of her mouth smiled. After hanging up, grandma Gu looked at the picture on Grandpa Gu''s tombstone and said, "old man, Xiaochen will live well... Right?" No one can answer grandma Gu, and only the gentle wind can answer her. "Old lady, go back?" Aunt LAN came forward to help grandma Gu for fear that she would be too sad and affect her body. Grandma Gu took a deep breath, nodded, and walked to the villa in front with aunt LAN. The sunshine was reflected on them, overflowing peace "Alan..." "Hey!" Aunt LAN answered. Grandma Gu glanced at her. "You said, what''s the way to let Lanxi put down that thing?" "I''m afraid it''s difficult..." aunt LAN sighed heavily, "after all..." she paused and said in the end, "old lady, it can''t be passed on anyone." Grandma Gu also understands this reason, but now she can''t separate Xiaochen and Jianmo because of the past... It''s too unfair to them. But let Lanxi put it down. It seems that it''s too hard After all, one is the life of my sister and the stain of my husband''s infidelity! Grandma Gu sighed again, slowly stopped and looked at the sun, "this man... As long as you want to live in the sun, there must be a shadow. Those unknown shadows will always hide behind people''s disguise with the movement of the sun." Aunt LAN didn''t speak, but there was a helpless sigh on her face ¡­¡­ The outside world is twisted under people''s mouth When a groundless thing breaks out and only one person says it, no one believes it, but when people all over the world are saying it, gradually, everyone will think that is the truth of the matter! Jane Mo was not in the mood to pay attention to what those people thought of her. She promised Gu Beichen that she would trust him and give her an answer. Even if everyone said it was made by Gu Beichen or the emperor, as long as Gu Beichen said no, she would believe him! "Jane, let''s divide the work and cooperate, OK?" Andy snapped his fingers and looked up at Jian Mo from the design prototype. Jane Mo shrugged and said it didn''t matter After several days of efforts, the prototype map of the Convention and Exhibition Center has come out. The next details really need division of labor and cooperation because of time. "Dang Dang!" At the right time, Sun Ke knocked on the glass door and then pushed the door in, "Mo Mo, Andy... There will be a meeting in the large conference room downstairs in half an hour." "Everyone?" Andy is a little annoyed and feels particularly constrained by the occasional meeting. Sun Ke smiled and nodded, "except for those who go out to work, everyone in the architectural design department!" Andy drooped his shoulders and looked at Jian Mo with a bitter face. His blue eyes were full of sadness He didn''t pry the goddess, and he was tied in a constrained environment... In Jane''s words, is this really good? Jane Mo looked at Andy with a smile, gave him a comforting look and expressed sympathy for him She didn''t understand. It was clear that she had strangled the thoughts of these people in the cradle. How could they still be so stubborn? Half an hour later, the floor of the architectural design department was empty except for Sun Ke''s office assistant... Everyone gathered in the large conference room downstairs. "Ding Lingling..." Su Ke''s desk phone rang and she calmly answered, "Hello, this is Xiangyu architectural design department." "Elder sister Ke," came the anxious voice in the evening, "why can''t you get through your mobile phone?" She first complained and hurriedly said, "go to my desk and see if there is a green USB flash disk on it... If not, see if there is one in my first drawer?" Su Ke rolled his eyes. "You are confused. Why did you forget to bring something again?" Xiang night suddenly groaned, "please, please, I''m really in a hurry... If so, I''ll go back and get it. It''s not over... It may be lost somewhere." Then she was about to cry, "if it''s lost, I''m really dead!" "Well, don''t worry, I''ll go and have a look... I''ll call you later..." Sun Ke said, then hung up the phone and went to the big office area. While Sun Ke''s back disappeared at the door of the large office area, someone pushed the door and came up in the stairwell at the right time She first looked at the direction of the large office area, and then looked at Jian Mo''s office. Then she lifted her feet and walked over The atmosphere suddenly became a little dignified, as if the depressed people around had forgotten to breathe. The man walked lightly and slowly. He looked at the direction of the large office area and finally stopped in front of Jian Mo''s office! Gently pushed down the door, still unlocked! A sneer slipped across the corner of her mouth Jane believes in the people around her too much. Sometimes she really doesn''t know whether it''s good... Or not. Standing at the design desk, I picked up my mobile phone and pressed the prototype of the design drawing of the Convention and Exhibition Center "Click!" Looking at the imaging on the mobile phone, as soon as her eyes closed, she hung her hand and was ready to leave However, when people came to the door and looked at the people who gradually gathered around the door, she suddenly widened her eyes and asked subconsciously, "aren''t you all in a meeting?" Chapter 296 Everyone came out of the large office area of the design department Yu Ziyun, Tang Haoyang, Jian Mo, Daxiong, Mo Xiaoya and so on. It''s even late for other companies to hand over the design drawings of the public area! Ding Dang stares at her eyes and breathes a little hurriedly. It''s messy... Mingming, when she eats at noon, she hears the director say that there will be a meeting in the afternoon? Sun Ke looked at Ding Dang and sneered, "do you think there is really a meeting today?" She paused, "Ding Dang, I didn''t think it was really you!" Her voice was filled with disappointment and coldness, more anger. Everyone looked at Ding Dang, and everyone''s face was full of all kinds of expressions There are surprise, doubt, anger, disdain, loss and sadness under disappointment. "Why are you?" Jane Mo opened her mouth, and her voice was so calm that people couldn''t guess her mood at the moment, "Ding Dang, you know? Even at the moment when Sun Ke''s phone rang, I didn''t want to believe it was you..." Her self mocking smile overflowed with mockery in her eyes, but she didn''t know whether it was self mockery or ridicule Dingdang. "How I wish... You didn''t appear?" Ding Dang''s hand clenched and didn''t speak, but his sight fell on Jian Mo cold. From beginning to end, it was a game. She thought that hiding Xiang night''s USB flash drive could give her a chance, but obviously... Xiang night''s going to see customers was also a set. "What did you say?" Yu Ziyun said, "I always hope Xiangyu''s atmosphere is harmonious. I''m also grateful that everyone can work in Xiangyu... But when each of you came in, I said my bottom line!" Whether old or new, they looked at each other and kept silent. Mu Xiaoran looked at Ding Dang with anger in his eyes. It was like a crazy little beast, ready to attack people at any time. Xiang night sneered, "can you tell me why?" She couldn''t stand it. "Do you know... How much you hurt sister Mo''s heart? You''re too much..." Ding Dang sneered, as if now that she had been found, she had nothing to hide, "am I excessive? Or is this company excessive?" With that, her eyes fell on Yu Ziyun "When you recruited us from, you said your bottom line and your fairness... But where is your fairness?" Ding Dang''s voice was a little sharp. "She can go to UCL with pay. You even write a letter of recommendation... What about us?" Jane Mo frowned slightly. Ding Dang continued, "I just want to study, but you don''t approve anything... Why?" At the same time, she looked at Jian Mo, "what''s good about you? I also graduated from a well-known design school in China... Why does every good task fall on you first?" Jane Mo''s eyebrows wrinkled tighter "Who in our design department is incompetent?" Ding Dang sneered, "you''re not alone!" Jane Mo walked forward, as if to take a serious look at Ding Dang''s expression at the moment The atmosphere became more and more condensed, and everyone breathed a little heavily, looking at Ding Dang and Jian mo. Yu Ziyun didn''t explain Ding Dang''s accusation... But he was completely disappointed at the bottom of his eyes. "Go to UCL with pay. Do you know what I pay?" Jian Mo''s voice was always calm, "I signed a contract with Xiangyu in the past ten years... Can you do it?" Everyone was shocked At that time, the average designer of Xiangyu was not able to sign such a long contract. Everyone, including Xiang Wan and others, opened their mouth slightly in amazement, with an unbelievable face. "Ding Dang, I''m not afraid of being hit by ideas..." Jian Mo''s voice began to fluctuate slightly, "because I have more ideas and more ideas, I''m not afraid!" Jian Mo''s words are full of disappointment under self-confidence. She can accept that anyone is this "traitor", even mu Xiaoran However, she never thought she was an old man in the design department! Those who are together every day, those who give her joy when she is sad... Those who come out when she has something to do and fully support her! But why? "When someone said they saw you in contact with popular people, I said it could be a coincidence!" Jian Mo clenched her gum and said, "after all, we are competitors, but we can''t say we can''t communicate in private." Jane Mo smiled with self mockery, "but at last?" Light Yi''s voice showed the pressure of pressing people''s hearts, and a pair of black pupils were filled with anger. Ding Dang just sneered, "yes, it''s me!" She smiled at the corner of her lips, "Jane Mo, I just don''t like you... How about it?" She hissed coldly, "Oh," I just can''t bear to see you have a rich husband and pretend to be pathetic... Do you like being sympathized so much? " Ding Dang has completely fallen into the magic barrier at the moment. She stared and said, "since you like being sympathized so much... I''m just helping you!" Jian Mo smiled angrily. However, the smile just hooked and became cold, "when you designed me for others... It seems that Gu Beichen is my husband?" "Jane Mo, do you really think you play the poor game seamlessly?" Ding Dang didn''t answer the question positively, but said coldly, "why sign a contract with Xiangyu for 10 years? You''re just because president Yu gave you the conditions for listing your shares!" Everything seemed to be twisted in Dingdang''s eyes. Jane Mo twisted her eyebrows, and her eyes were full of disappointment. "Not counting later, we had been together for two years..." Jane Mo shook her hand. "Is that how you see me?" "Look at you?" Ding Dang snorted coldly, "if I don''t look at you like this, how can I look at you?" She clenched her teeth. "Mingming married Gu Beichen and pretended to participate in the competition on their own, and even won in the end... What do you want me to think of you, a person like you?" Jane Mo''s lips moved back and forth. For the original "victory", it was a thorn she had not had time to pull out! "Moreover, the design of your club was finally changed..." Ding Dang sneered. "Is that because of plagiarism? You are not qualified to go to UCL!" Jian Mo''s face coagulated in an instant, and her pupils, including Yu Ziyun and Tang Haoyang, expanded slightly in surprise Xiang night quit at the moment, "Ding Dang, don''t add your obscene sight to sister Mo!" "Yes!" Mu Xiaoran also gritted his teeth and said, "what''s sister Mo''s last design? Everyone saw it... It can be said that it amazed many people in the industry?" "It''s not plagiarism. What design did she change?" Ding Dang said, suddenly took out a magazine from his bag and threw it on the ground, "look for yourself!" Someone picked up the magazine. Others haven''t seen the design of the first draft of Jian Mo, but I saw it later When I saw the design in the magazine at night, my eyes widened in an instant! "How possible?" After saying something to the evening, he grinned and stared at Ding Dang and said, "I won''t believe sister Mo plagiarized!" "The evidence is here. Don''t you believe it''s useful?" Ding Dang raised his eyebrows and looked at Jian Mo with a sneer. There was a frenzied excitement due to jealousy at the bottom of his eyes, "Jian Mo, you''re waiting to be ruined..." PS: ecwxjp, each voucher is only valid for the first 100. Chapter 297 "Pa!" Suddenly, a crisp sound came. The atmosphere was already dignified and rigid. This slap was like breaking a tense line... Suddenly, everyone''s heart shook violently. Jian Mo''s hand was a little numb and astringent. "Ding Dang, you can accuse me of anything..." her voice was slightly cold, "but plagiarism is not allowed!" When Ding Dang was beaten, his eyes turned scarlet. "You have the face to do it, but you don''t have the face to let people say it?" "Do not do, fair and free people..." Jane Mo was indifferent, and her last hope for Dingdang was completely broken because of the slap. "Dingdang, you really make me too sad!" Words fell, she coldly mocked herself, hooked the lower lip corner, turned and entered the elevator "Sister Mo!" Mu Xiaoran was the first to shout and wanted to catch up, but she was held by Mo Xiaoya. "Let her calm down alone!" Mo Xiaoya said. Mu Xiaoran was completely worried in his eyes, and his mouth began to crack. Then he stared fiercely and wanted to come forward and tear her up! "I believe sister Mo will not be plagiarism. There must be a problem with this magazine!" Mu Xiaoran said with hatred, and his tone was completely firm. No one in the old man with Jian Mo believes that Jian Mo copied... After all, in a company as big as the emperor, even if Gu Beichen is Jian Mo''s husband, he can''t be so casual. If the emperor depended on nepotism, I''m afraid the Chu family four years ago would not be so difficult People have different thoughts. The old man naturally stands on Jian Mo''s side Later, people who didn''t know Jian Mo just stood in a neutral position. We disdain Ding Dang for stealing pictures However, if Jane Mo is really plagiarism, they will only disdain it more! Xiangyuli''s atmosphere became stiff because he found out the traitors. Yu Ziyun can''t tolerate Ding Dang to stay... Such a person can be said to be unfaithful for a hundred times in the design industry! However, regarding the theft of Jian Mo''s design drawings by the wind and cloud, is it to investigate the legal responsibility or what... He still needs to discuss with Jian Mo how to do it? Lingyu international rooftop, the gentle wind raised Jian Mo''s capable short hair, revealing her sadness hidden in peace. The nose suddenly stung, and a thin layer of water mist filled the eyes in an instant Jane Mo quickly tilted her head and held back her lips... Her eyes widened and stubbornly refused to let tears flow down. Her heartache is not to be said to be plagiarized, nor is her design stolen... What she is sad about now is that the people around her are so jealous? Why Xiangyu Mingming is a company with a harmonious atmosphere. Ding dangming is a cheerful person. Why is it like this? Jane Mo closed her eyes and leaned against the fence. In the end... Tears fell uncontrollably. The sweet bell of the mobile phone came at the right time. Jian Mo seemed to be found sad. He quickly wiped his tears and took out his mobile phone Gu''s "sour heart" suddenly appeared again. She tried to take a deep breath for several times before she picked up the phone and put it in her ear. "How can I make a phone call now?" Jane Mo tried to keep her voice relaxed and asked. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly deep, and then his thin lips gently said, "see if some people miss me..." "I''m so busy with my work. Who wants you?" Jane Mo said angrily. Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a faint radian, "can you still be busy with my emperor President?" He said softly, "but I can miss you in my spare time!" Shua, Jian Mo''s tears fell uncontrollably The more you want to wipe your tears, the more you don''t want to wipe your hands! "You won''t tell me that you are crying because I miss you now?" Gu Beichen''s low voice came through the magnetism under the charm, "if so, although I''m very happy... But I still have to review!" "Why..." Jane Mo couldn''t help choking out a nasal sound. "Because it makes you cry..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and the ink pupil emitted two pure lights under the cold, "that''s my fault!" As soon as Jane Mo heard it, she completely collapsed. "It''s your fault..." she sniffed willfully. "It''s all because of you... It''s your fault!" "Well, it''s my fault!" Gu Beichen replied softly, "I admit... You don''t cry, okay?" Jian Mo squatted down slowly, because Ding Dang''s depressed mood couldn''t hide in front of Gu Beichen and cried Gu Beichen just listened to Jian Mo crying. Because of her crying, he suffocated badly... It was like a rope was tightening constantly. However, he is happy again Because his Mo''er is willing to be willful with him and expose his mood in front of him without scruples. "Mo''er, people all over the world can not believe you..." Gu Beichen''s voice floated quietly, "but I am the one who will never question you!" Jane Mo listened to Gu Beichen''s voice and cried more and more fiercely. After so many things, she thought she wouldn''t cry like this No! Her friend''s betrayal made her sad. She was just as naive as Gu Beichen said... Believe everyone, if you treat her sincerely, she will respond the same! Jane Mo doesn''t know how long she cried. Gu Beichen stayed with her on the other side of the phone for so long The soft, low and magnetic voice gently comforted her and forcibly stripped her sadness out of her body a little bit. "I put down my work and have a very important meeting..." Gu Beichen said with a smile, "the loss is heavy. How can you compensate me?" "The wife is sad, the husband accompanies the wife and comforts the wife..." Jane Mo''s voice is still a little grumbling and stares at her eyes and asks, "shouldn''t it be?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen''s smile on his thin lips instantly reached the bottom of his eyes, "but I have to comfort you, don''t I?" All that''s left of you, except for your clever behavior at night, said Jane Gu Beichen slipped a touch of treachery at the bottom of his eyes, "well, it seems... I can only bear it and move the comfort to tomorrow morning..." "......." Jane Mo was speechless and gnashed her teeth angrily. "Gu Beichen, is that the only thing in your heart?" "Which thing!" Gu Beichen asked magnetically, with danger in his voice. "..." Jane Mo choked immediately. Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually became deep and bottomless, "or... What is my Mo''er reminding me now?" "Where do I have?" Jane Mo immediately refuted. "Oh?" Gu Beichen said softly. Even across the wireless wave, Jian Mo could feel the danger under the ambiguous smell that filled Gu Beichen... She couldn''t help swallowing it. Chapter 298 "Dong Dong!" At the right moment, there was a knock on the door from Gu Beichen''s office. Jane mor heard it. She blushed because of the ambiguity just now. She hurriedly said, "you are busy, and I have to work... Bye!" "Wait!" Jane Mo was just about to hang up when Gu Beichen heard a warning. Jane Mo swallowed secretly and didn''t hang up the phone, "why?" Gu Beichen heard the little woman''s dissatisfaction, and his thin lips slightly hooked a wanton arc, "I''ll pick you up after work... Huh?" "I''m driving!" Jane Mo glanced. "Besides, I have to work tomorrow!" "I''ll see you off tomorrow morning!" "Why did you come to pick me up?" Jane Mo wondered. The bottom of Gu Beichen''s eyes was gentle, and the corners of his mouth were filled with a teasing smile, "take you to the field and feel the artistic conception of Taking heaven as quilt and earth as Lu, huh?" "..." Jian Mo''s face turned red at that moment. Because she was shy, she said angrily, "Gu Beichen, you bastard!" She didn''t wait for Gu Beichen to speak, so she quickly hung up the phone Just for a moment, she felt her heart beat faster, as if her heart was about to jump out of her chest. Listening to the "dududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududu! Xiao Jing didn''t say anything until Gu Beichen put down his mobile phone: sullen! Then he came forward and said, "Mrs. Shao''s affairs have been handled..." after that, he said again, "in addition, there is news about Jian Chang!" Gu Beichen looked up at Xiao Jing "Xiao Nan had just arrived in the Netherlands when she received the news unexpectedly. However, when she investigated deeply, the clue was broken again!" Xiao Jing shrugged. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and a pair of eagle eyes looked at Xiao Jing darkly. Xiao Jing grinned secretly, pulled the corners of his mouth and said, "but... It''s certain that the second master was behind it." Gu Beichen''s eyes drooped slightly, his thick black eyelashes converged to remove the heavy violence in the depths of the ink pupil, and a cold radian was hooked on one side of his thin lip corner. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing pondered and just said, "I doubt that the second master has reset Jian Heng''s identity!" Gu Beichen didn''t move, but there was a slight sneer on his cold, carved face. "It''s not easy for Zixiao to find out what happened by Yujing Lake... I doubt it''s not just the second uncle!" As he spoke, he slowly raised his eyes, which looked like the sea without wind and waves. They seemed calm, but in fact they were already turbulent, waiting for the storm to sweep everything. ¡­¡­ The atmosphere in Xiangyu was dignified. No one thought that the "traitor" would be Dingdang, so that the truth came too fast and most people couldn''t react. "Hum, I''ll just say... Some people always dislike Jian mo." "Just... Didn''t their design department unite very much before? It turned out to be just like this..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Other departments are chatting in the tea room, just talking about others and being jealous at the same time. "Oh, big news..." suddenly, someone walked into the tea room with a mobile phone, "have you seen the online news?" "What?" Everyone immediately gathered forward in doubt. "God, Jane Mo''s design is really copied? I thought it was Ding Dang just looking for trouble?" "Tut Tut, I''m afraid it was because he was found plagiarizing... Gu Beichen wanted to give his wife a step and changed the design again?" "I don''t know. The one with the new design is also plagiarism!" "Some people are just a scheming bitch and have to pretend to be pure..." Duni sneered. "I think her design has been withdrawn this time. It may also mean that she copied others'' situation? It''s just that she had an affair with Yu, and then buckled the excrement basin to Ding Dang." Several women looked at Duni and didn''t speak about it "Nini, we are all wrong..." someone said, "the new news has come out!" Dunny frowned at the speaker, then took the phone and refreshed the page. Sure enough... A piece of news that is even hotter than Jane''s possible suspicion of plagiarism jumped in the eyes, and the amount of comments and attention soared in an instant. "Tut Tut, sister Mo, Chen Shao is so handsome..." looking at the mobile phone at night, Gu Beichen is just the instant vision of her male god, holding the mobile phone in his hand and looking up intoxicated. "Yes, yes!" Mu Xiaoran was also excited. "Sister Mo, this matter was solved four years ago? You should just throw the truth to Ding Dang and let her know how wrong she is!" Xiangwan and mu Xiaoran chattered around, but Jian Mo''s mind fell on the news In the picture, although the woman in this prison uniform''s eyes are covered by black bars, she still recognizes at a glance that she is the ADA she met in city a! I can''t tell what it''s like in my heart, but now... Jane Mo has only the original scenes in her mind. Gu Beichen agreed with her to modify the design drawing He said to her: because your design has changed, someone will evaluate your design at that time. Are you afraid? He also said: Jane Mo, if you have something in the future, you can come to me directly! Jane Mo''s nose was sour again in an instant, which was a sweet feeling filled with happiness. She never knew... He did so many things for her silently! The man never said... Just let her go forward at ease. When she was tired, he leaned back. He was always behind her Jane Momo''s lips deviated from her head to keep her tears from falling, but the corners of her mouth were hooked up. Xiangwan and mu Xiaoran were surprised by Jian Mo''s sudden sadness. They looked at each other and were at a loss. "Sister Mo......" Mu Xiaoran shouted. "I''m fine. I just suddenly thought of something before." Jane Mo said, then motioned two people to do things. When mu Xiaoran and Xiang night left, Jian Mo sent a text message to Gu Beichen: you did so much behind me, but you never told me Gu Beichen looked at the message with his eyes slightly drooping, and replied with a slight hook at the corner of his mouth: you open the way, I''ll cover! Jane Mo: aren''t you afraid I''m going too far? Can''t you catch me? Gu Beichen: it''s all right to catch up with me! As soon as Jian Mo saw it, he immediately ''poo poo'' laughed Why can this man dissolve her sadness so easily? One news after another is like taking a roller coaster It was revealed that Jian Mo copied ADA''s design, and then it was revealed that ADA was caught trying to confuse the truth because of a fake magazine. Everyone was amazed at the speed of the counter attack and couldn''t help sighing... Although Jane Mo was always "villain", it was enough to have Gu Beichen around her. Tang Yu looked at Chu Zixiao, glanced at his computer screen and sighed, "Zixiao, let go!" Chapter 299 Chu Zixiao''s eyes still fell on the computer screen, and his handsome face said coldly, "ah Yu, I can''t put it... I haven''t been able to put it for so many years. How can I put it now?" "Zixiao, she is your little aunt now. This can''t be changed!" Because your cousin Tang Yu and Gu mengran got up and thought about your chair too much Tang Yu didn''t say the following words. He just looked at Chu Zixiao with worry. Recently, except for the case, all ah Xiao''s spirit has been focused on the things by Yujing lake. As things went deeper and deeper, he became more and more worried that ah Xiao would deviate Chu Zixiao didn''t seem to see Tang Yu''s anger, but calmly got up, "I''ll go out!" "Where are you going?" Tang Yu asked reflexively. Chu Zixiao didn''t answer, but just walked out Han Zhenzhen looked out of Chu Zixiao and moved with his steps. When he saw him leave, the corners of his mouth burst into tears. Chu Zixiao, is a Jian Mo really worth it? Han Zhenzhen gradually clenched her hand with the pen, and a touch of anger slipped through her eyes. Chu Zixiao drove his car all the way. When the car stopped at the white villa that took the information of Yujing lake that day, he stopped. Through the windshield, his vision fell on the second floor of the villa, where the curtains were pulled and there was a gloomy smell. The time when the things on the Bank of Yujing Lake were exposed was his time here. What was this man''s purpose? Do you want Beichen to misunderstand him? Thinking like this, Chu Zixiao looked deep, then converged his eyes and looked ahead At the right time, the mobile phone rang. Chu Zixiao took out his eyes and frowned in an instant. He picked it up while looking at the white villa. "I was thinking... Why did I release the information directly when I gave you the information?" The man''s voice came through the feminine charm, "think I''m unnecessary?" Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, just listened. The man chuckled, which made the soles of his feet cold... It was like seeping out of hell. "I''m a lawyer... At least, I haven''t completely lost my mind." The man''s voice was calm without any intonation. "Since you doubt me, take your time to check it." Then the man cut off the phone. On the second floor of the villa, the fingers that slightly lifted the curtains were slender and powerful, but showed unhealthy white. The man looked at the car parked outside the villa, sneered, and then slowly put down the curtain. "Drag the Dragon Owl..." the man said softly, "I want to see... How many hands Chen can have to face the next problem." "Yes, Qin Shao!" Standing in the corner, Mosen lowered his eyes and answered. In the dark, Shi Shaoqin put a faint smile on the corner of his mouth. The smile was weird and frightening. "I''m really looking forward to... Seeing him again." Shi Shaoqin smiled from his heart. "My blood boils at the thought of meeting Chen soon." Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin. There was not much expression change on his face, but... There was a touch of gloom at the bottom of his eyes. Jane Mo packed up her things and left work. She felt a little tired about what happened today However, because of Gu Beichen, she seemed to be able to Instantly revive with blood. Gu Beichen''s car is waiting under Lingyu international. The luxurious and introverted Maybach is like a driver with the king''s breath of domineering and awe inspiring. Jane Mo got into the car generously, ignoring the disdain and jealousy around her. "I found a problem..." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and said. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s reddish eye circles. The bottom of his eyes slipped a touch of heartache, and then asked, "what''s the matter?" "You send milk bags to boarding, which is convenient for us to steal sunshine!" Jane Mo said with a smile. "..." Gu Beichen frowned, "we are legal!" Then he raised his thin lips. "It should be said that his son doesn''t want to be a light bulb." After that, he leaned over. When Jian Mo''s subconscious body was slightly stiff, with a teasing smile in his mouth, he pulled the seat belt over and fastened it "Thought I was going to kiss you in public?" Gu Beichen picked an evil radian at the end of his eyebrow. Jane Mo hid her careful thoughts in her heart, hooked her mouth and shook her head Gu Beichen frowned. Before he spoke, he saw Jane Mo bend over and kiss him on the face. "I was thinking... Do you want to kiss you as a reward!" Jian Mo''s eyes slipped through the cunning. He couldn''t be held by Gu Beichen every time. He was too passive. Gu Beichen didn''t ignore the smile at the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes. His thin lips were shallow and hooked up. His eyes became dangerous and deep in an instant. "If you raise fire, you''re not afraid that I''ll put you in the right place?" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she simply hooked her arms around Gu Beichen''s neck, "here... Staged a live show, are you not afraid that I will be seen by other men?" "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen''s voice was hoarse, showing the arrogance of discontent. "You can only be mine!" Jane Mo smiled sweetly at the corners of her mouth, "I''m just yours... You''re just mine!" "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered, pecked at the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth, sat upright, started the car and left Lingyu. "Where are you going?" Jane Mo asked subconsciously. "Shaochen made an appointment for dinner." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen, "is he alone?" "Yes." "Can I take someone?" Jane Mo immediately brightened her eyes. Gu Beichen glanced at her. "Who?" "Xiao Yue!" Jane Mo laughed. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and couldn''t laugh or cry about the strange light flashing at the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes. "Mo''er, Shaochen has someone in his heart." "I know, Shen Chu!" When Jian Mo mentioned the name, it was obviously vinegar. Gu Beichen had a headache, but pretended not to see it. "Are you sure it''s good for Xiao Yue?" "Just a meal. Do you want to think so much?" Jane Mo stared. Gu Beichen couldn''t laugh or cry. Didn''t she think too much? However, considering that it was just a meal, it would be good if Shaochen could change. I couldn''t help but agree. Li Xiaoyue was preparing to come out of the law firm when she received a call from Jian mo. it was said that she had dinner with Mo Shaochen. Don''t mention how excited she was. "Where is it?" Li Xiaoyue asked, "I''ll just go there myself." Jian Mo reported the name of the restaurant. Obviously, she felt that Li Xiaoyue couldn''t suppress her emotions. Suddenly, she felt fishy. But she didn''t ask much at the moment. As the restaurant is close to Li Xiaoyue, she happens to be there when Gu Beichen and Jian Mo arrive. "Tut Tut, are you flying?" Jane Mo teased. Li Xiaoyue also generously raised her eyebrows. "There''s no way. When there''s something urgent waiting for you, you can''t do it if you''re not urgent!" Laughing, she said hello to Gu Beichen. Then the three men went into the restaurant together. However, when the three people saw Shen Chu sitting next to Mo Shaochen, they were stunned in situ Chapter 300 "I don''t seem to have come properly." Li Xiaoyue twitched at the corners of her mouth, and then said with an embarrassed smile. Jane Mo frowned and looked at Gu Beichen and then at Shen Chu. "It''s as if I''m here. I''m not welcome..." Shen Chu said coldly. Jane Mo didn''t speak. Gu Beichen just looked indifferent. "When we met on the road, we called together..." Mo Shaochen''s eyes fell on Li Xiaoyue, "come and join us." He said so, even if Li Xiaoyue wanted to go, he couldn''t. The atmosphere is a little awkward. Considering Li Xiaoyue''s mood, Jian Mo secretly blames herself Li Xiaoyue turned quickly and became generous in the twinkling of an eye. Gu Beichen didn''t take a serious look at Shen Chu from beginning to end, as if she was invisible. He just gently asked Jian Mo what she wanted to eat and took care of Li Xiaoyue''s mood. When Jian Mo saw that Li Xiaoyue "didn''t mind", she naturally wouldn''t show a very embarrassed look to Shen Chu, but naturally responded to Gu Beichen. But the original nature fell into Shen Chu''s eyes, but it became particularly dazzling. Because of the existence of Shen Chu, the whole dinner atmosphere became stiff, although no one showed it during the dinner. "And Zixiao''s case is about to be heard for the last time?" Gu Beichen suddenly asked. "Yes." Mo Shaochen answered and immediately asked, "are you worried about him?" Gu Beichen smiled, "will you win?" "Who knows?" Mo Shaochen chuckled. There are too many factors to win or lose a case with no technical gap. Gu Beichen didn''t continue to ask this question, but just turned off the topic The topic between men usually doesn''t interest women, but Gu Beichen takes care of Jian Mo''s mood from time to time, which makes Shen Chu hide his anger more and more gently and carefully. "I''ll go to the bathroom." Li Xiaoyue said suddenly. "I''ll accompany you?" Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo and smiled, "girl, I''m not a child..." she got up after laughing angrily. "Come together, I really want to go!" Shen Chu suddenly spoke. "Good!" Li Xiaoyue didn''t care, but answered. Jian Mo looked at the back of the two people who left and frowned secretly. She was worried... But considering Li Xiaoyue''s temperament, she should not suffer. Li Xiaoyue stood in front of the glass platform and washed her hands. Shen Chu came out at the right time. Neither of them spoke, and the atmosphere became more and more awkward... But there was still a turbulent undercurrent between women in the embarrassment. "Do you like Shaochen?" Shen Chu looked at Li Xiaoyue in the mirror and asked. "Don''t Miss Shen think it''s impolite to ask?" Li Xiaoyue is indifferent to her. Shen Chu smiled, enchanting and charming. She took out a piece of paper and wiped her hand. She leaned over and looked at Li Xiaoyue. "Is it polite for Miss Li to peep at other people''s men?" Li Xiaoyue smiled, "Oh, someone else''s man... Who is that person, please?" Shen Chu frowned. "If Miss Shen is talking about yourself, you''ll go to the senior to make it clear..." Li Xiaoyue sneered. "In that way, if you swear sovereignty, others naturally don''t think about it." Li Xiaoyue has heard Jian Mo talk about Shen Chu, Gu Beichen and Mo Shaochen. "Miss Li is indeed a lawyer, and her mouth is really profitable!" Shen Chu sneered. "A sharp mouth is better than a cruel mind..." Li Xiaoyue smiled enchanting. "Miss Shen, do you think so?" Shen Chu suddenly changed his face. Just what he wanted, he listened to Li Xiaoyue "Fighting in the bathroom is a woman''s lowest means... It doesn''t meet the identity of Miss Shen!" The words fell, Li Xiaoyue smiled calmly, and then turned and walked out. Because of Jian Mo''s relationship, Li Xiaoyue had no good impression of Shen Chu... Plus Mo Shaochen, she was disgusted with this woman! Since she wanted to go to the bathroom with her at that time, she knew that Shen Chu wanted to pick something up. Suddenly Li Xiaoyue stood at the door of the bathroom and looked at Shen Chu. "Oh, by the way..." she fanned her eyes, "don''t peep at other people''s men... I think it''s better for you!" She seemed to smile innocently, then turned and left with a calm step. Shen Chu''s face became more embarrassed when he "brushed" She gritted her teeth and stared at the empty bathroom door, almost spewing fire. After coming out of the bathroom, Xu was the reason for Li Xiaoyue''s complete victory. The whole atmosphere was also activated by her. "It''s the local stall that makes the stewed noodles." Li Xiaoyue ate noodles as if she had no intention of looking at Mo Shaochen and said, "senior, this is very different from the noodle stall that night." Mo Shaochen smiled and answered, "indeed!" Li Xiaoyue inadvertently looked at Shen Chu and saw that her face was green because Gu Beichen was considerate to Jian Mo and her words. She was in an inexplicable mood. Her eyes turned to Jian Mo and saw signs of asking about "adultery" in her eyes. She just blinked. Jane Mo didn''t ask much. Looking at the turbulent undercurrent between Li Xiaoyue and Shen Chu, she was completely taken to the theatre. After dinner, Mo Shaochen asked Gu Beichen to have a drink. Jian Mo knew that they had something to say. Seeing Gu Beichen looking at her with some worry, she smiled and said, "Xiaoyue, just send me back." "You go to Xiaoyue first and I''ll pick you up later, huh?" Gu Beichen seemed to have a touch of worry at the bottom of his eyes. "Good!" Jane Mo didn''t ask why, but answered. Gu Beichen looked at Li Xiaoyue and Jian Mo and then took back his sight. He glanced at Shen Chu and got on the car calmly. Mo Shaochen astringed his eyes. "Xiaochu, you can see how Beichen treats Jian mo... Even before," he glanced at her, "Beichen is not so careful to you. This is the difference between love and love, okay?" He didn''t wait for Shen Chu to speak, but after staring at her deeply, he turned and went to his car. The night breeze gently brushed his face. Shen Chuli stood at the door of the restaurant and watched the cars leave one by one. Gradually, an unspeakable sneer overflowed from the corners of his mouth "What''s the matter with you and Mo Shaochen?" Jane Mo is sitting in the car gossiping. Li Xiaoyue smiled. "What''s going on with today''s report?" She teased, "girl, with your headline speed, Wang Feng can''t cry to death?" "Well, change the subject. It''s fishy!" Jane skimmed her mouth. Li Xiaoyue smiled, "I was so angry just now... I went to the party''s house that day and was going to have a snack. I just met Mo Shaochen!" Jane Mo just wanted to have a deep eight one, and the mobile phone suddenly thought. She took it out. Seeing that it was Chu Zixiao''s, she couldn''t help but feel a little conflicted. "What''s the matter?" Seeing that Jian Mo''s face was wrong, Li Xiaoyue couldn''t help asking. "Zixiao''s." Jane gave a deep sigh. "He is really..." Li Xiaoyue twitched at the corners of her mouth, "too persistent." Jane Mo hasn''t picked it up yet, and her heart has been particularly heavy. Even, she somehow resisted the call and always felt that after the call was answered... Many things would become different! She swallowed it secretly. When the bell was about to stop, Jane Mo picked it up, "hello?" Chapter 301 "Mo Mo, where are you?" Chu Zixiao''s voice came with a trace of hoarseness, as if he was holding back something. Jane Mo frowned slightly, looked at Li Xiaoyue and asked, "what''s the matter?" "I have something to see you!" Chu Zixiao''s voice became more and more dignified. Jane Mo''s inexplicable emotion was affected. She pressed down the uneasiness in her heart and said, "it''s so late... Tomorrow!" "No, it must be now!" Chu Zixiao''s voice suddenly became a little anxious and condensed. "What''s the matter?" Jane Mo asked with a slight depth of vision. "Meet and say!" Chu Zixiao asked, "are you in the middle of the mountain or where?" "I''m here in Xiaoyue..." after all, Jane Mo said. After hearing this, Chu Zixiao just put down the sentence "I''ll find you" and hung up the phone. Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo and asked, "what''s the matter?" "He said to come to me..." Jane Mo had a headache. She really didn''t know what to do about Chu Zixiao''s persistence? If we talk about getting along, she and Su Jun have been apart for more than four years. However, that man always gives her the most considerate feeling. He always puts the distance between each other in the most appropriate place... It''s a sin for you to refuse. And Zixiao Jane Mo sighed darkly, and the corners of her mouth were astringent. She and he are two intersecting lines, slowly approaching from a far place... After intersecting, they go farther and farther. "Go up first?" Li Xiaoyue asked. "Wait here!" Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo, "I''ll accompany you... I''ll go up when he comes." Knowing that Li Xiaoyue was worried, Jian Mo nodded. "Do you want to tell your husband?" Li Xiaoyue asked. Jane Mo shook her head after thinking about it. "What else can Zixiao say... Forget it. Ah Chen is probably talking to Mo Shaochen about something. Don''t find him Tiandu." Li Xiaoyue smiled. "It''s like your husband has a strong possessive desire." "No... I just don''t want to make him uncomfortable." Jian Mo looked ahead and said, "take heart to heart... If Shen Chu looks for him now, I''m not happy even if I know he won''t do well." Then she looked at Li Xiaoyue. Li Xiaoyue shrugged, smiled and said, "tut Tut, happy little women are different..." Los Angeles River Bridge. The night wind slowly brushed his face, raised Gu Beichen''s rebellious short hair, and revealed his deep eagle eyes. "Have you seen mom?" Gu Beichen asked, but he was still sure. "Yes!" Mo Shaochen replied, "the mood is still unstable." Gu Beichen looked at Mo Shaochen. After a long time, he narrowed his eyes and looked at the Los Angeles River, which became dark under the night. "Is it for Jane Mo to invite me to dinner today?" Mo Shaochen slightly hooked the corner of his mouth, "it''s true..." Gu Beichen slightly frowned at Mo Shaochen. "Even if there is no lawyer, my voice is not to be reprimanded..." Shaochen said, "my voice is not to be reprimanded, even if there is no lawyer here." "For Shen Chu?" Gu Beichen is light again. Mo Shaochen smiled at himself, "Beichen, do you think a person''s direction is wrong... Can you come back?" "Can you!" Gu Beichen said coldly, "it depends on whether the person is willing... If not, how can he come back?" Mo Shaochen''s eyes narrowed slightly, as if he was tolerating something. After a long time, he said, "yes!" Shen Chu doesn''t want to go on the right road. What can he do even if he lets her see Beichen''s heart? "Aunt, I''m afraid she''ll find Jian Mo sooner or later..." Mo Shaochen looked at Gu Beichen and said. "No!" Gu Beichen said faintly, "unless... He wants to kill me!" Mo Shaochen tightened his eyebrows because of the cold breath on Gu Beichen. He looked at Gu Beichen puzzled, as if he didn''t understand that this was from his mouth. In the early summer, the night wind blew slowly and freshly. Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue sat at the edge of the flower bed downstairs. In the quiet and peaceful night, under the lights of thousands of houses, there was something treacherous. A figure came with big steps. Jian Mo almost immediately determined that it was Chu Zixiao. Sure enough Chu Zixiao was dressed in a white shirt and black trousers, and his decent tailoring reflected his posture like a famous model. Under the not too bright night light, Junya''s face has a thin alienation, and a pair of eyes are bright and soft, but deep like the sea, which makes people can''t see to the end "That..." Li Xiaoyue looked at Chu Zixiao and pointed to the building. "Go up and talk?" "No!" Feeling the breath on Chu Zixiao''s body, Jian Mo got up and said, "Xiao Yue, you go up first!" Li Xiaoyue frowned and looked at Jian Mo with some worry. Jane Mo nodded slightly to reassure her "All right..." Li Xiaoyue answered. After seeing Chu Zixiao, she turned around and went upstairs first. Chu Zixiao and Jian Mo are the only two people left in the space, and the atmosphere is also a little awkward. Suddenly Chu Zixiao came forward, pulled Jian Mo''s wrist and walked outside the community. "Xiao Zi?" Jane Mo was pulled hard and hurt a little. She couldn''t help shouting. Chu Zixiao didn''t seem to hear it, but just pulled Jian Mo out all the time. His steps are a little big, and Jane Mo needs to trot to keep up... She wants to get rid of him, but Chu Zixiao''s strength to imprison her every time. "Chu Zixiao, don''t make me regret agreeing to meet!" Jane Mo was completely angry. She didn''t expect such a situation. Chu Zixiao still didn''t speak, but when he got to the car, he opened the co pilot''s door and stuffed Jian Mo in. Just when Jian Mo wanted to get off angrily, he looked at her with straight eyes and said, "believe me, you won''t regret meeting me." Then, without giving Jane Mo a chance, he took the safety belt and tied it to her, and turned to the driver''s seat. Start the car, reverse, slide into the road... All the actions are done at one go, showing the evil cunning of going down at will. "Where are you going?" Jane Mo frowned and asked. "A place you really want to go..." Chu Zixiao said faintly, while his eyes fell on Jian mo. Jane Mo frowned and didn''t speak. To say that Chu Zixiao will hurt her, she thinks she thinks too much It''s just that the atmosphere is too depressing and makes her want to escape. The car was speeding along the streets of Los Angeles. No one in the car spoke. The depressed atmosphere made people''s heart beat slowly. "Squeak -" The sound of braking cut through the quiet space. Jian Mo leaned forward slightly, then frowned and looked aside When she saw a few copper characters of "Yujing Lake", her pupils widened and looked back at Chu Zixiao, "what are you bringing me here for?" Chapter 302 Chu Zixiao stared at Jian Mo deeply and said nothing. He just got off the bus, went to the co pilot, loosened the seat belt for Jian Mo, and then took her wrist and took it down Jian Mo was passively taken by Chu Zixiao, because the action was imposed. She didn''t know that the mobile phone slipped from her pocket and fell on the seat. Chu Zixiao closed the door and then took Jian Mo and left. "Zixiao!" Jane Mo tried to stop, but the disparity in strength forced her to continue to follow Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao didn''t speak all the way, but walked very familiar with the whole Yujing Lake Whether it''s a road or a trail, it''s particularly easy for him to cross. Jane Mo seemed to know what he wanted to do and didn''t ask again. So she was pulled away by him and finally stopped in front of a high-rise building with more than 20 floors. Looking up, Jane Mo frowned slightly, with resistance in her sight. "Here..." Chu Zixiao pointed to the building in front of him, looked at Jane Mo and said, "it''s where Uncle Jane fell!" Jane Mo''s heart "bang" hit hard, as if she had been hit hard on her heart. Breathing, some heavy and disordered, and the chest rises and falls because of suffocation. "Mo Mo, tell me first..." Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo darkly. "Is it to be with Beichen that you can forget everything?" "I won''t forget!" Jane Mo clenched her hand and looked at Chu Zixiao with forbearance in her tone, "but I believe him!" "Do you believe him or don''t you want to face the truth?" Chu Zixiao asked coldly. "I''ve avoided one thing in my life..." Jian Mo''s voice was calm and firm. "Except for my feelings, I didn''t face it directly before. I didn''t have anything to escape!" Escape is not the way to solve things. At least, the only time she escaped, she missed her four years with Gu Beichen! "Mo Mo, if..." Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo''s firmness, and resentment gradually rose from the bottom of his eyes, "... I''ll put the evidence in front of you?" "I don''t need it!" Jian Mo''s voice was indisputable. "I promised ah Chen that I would believe him and only get the answer from his mouth, so I wouldn''t listen to anyone!" After the words fell, Jian Mo stared deeply at Chu Zixiao and turned around to leave. However, the talent just moved and was stopped by Chu Zixiao. "Chu Zixiao, you let go!" Jian Mo angrily yelled at him. At the same time, regardless of whether his wrist would be hurt, he twisted desperately to get rid of it. "I''ll give you proof!" Chu Zixiao stared and said, "if the evidence is in front of you and you don''t believe it... Then I have nothing to say." Then he grabbed Jane Mo again and went out. Seeing that she was going out, Jian Mo also let Chu Zixiao In front of the car, Chu Zixiao opened the door, took out the briefcase, took out a pile of information inside and handed it to Jian mo. Jane Mo looked at Chu Zixiao suspiciously and didn''t want to see it. However, there seemed to be something in her body that drove her to see it. Reach out and pick it up. Jian Mo''s eyes drooped in Chu Zixiao''s frozen eyes In the light of the street lamp, Jane Mo looked at the content above As she turned page by page, her breathing became heavier and heavier, as if the position of her heart was constantly squeezed by people''s hands, making her almost unable to breathe. Jian Mo''s hand holding the information became weak and fell to the ground with a soft sound of "pa". "Now, do you believe it?" Chu Zixiao asked lightly. Jian Mo swallowed it secretly, and her eyelashes fanned slightly. After a while, her eyes gradually gathered and fell in love with Chu Zixiao, "he won''t do such a thing!" The tone is a little far away, but it is firm. "Jian Mo, is it for Gu Beichen that you can become blind?" Chu Zixiao roared. "Yes!" Jane Mo roared out with almost all her strength. "I only believe him. If he says no, I believe it!" Seeing Jian Mo like this, Chu Zixiao was stunned He didn''t expect that Jane would be so blind! "You really let me down..." Chu Zixiao was like a wounded beast. At this moment, he couldn''t even lick his wound. "You also let me down!" Jane Mo gritted her teeth, "Gu Beichen is your little uncle, and what are you... Doing?" Coldly put down the words, Jane Mo turned around with her lips, and walked forward step by step with heavy footsteps as if filled with lead. Tears, so inadvertently fell down. Blurred his sight and scalded his cheeks. The position of the heart was throbbing... All in my mind was the sound of the doctor announcing my father''s death in the hospital that year. Jane Mo''s eyelashes kept trembling, and the corners of her mouth trembled and couldn''t close. She walked like this, step by step... Tears wound down her cheeks, fell on the corners of her mouth, and fainted in her mouth. Chu Zixiao stood where he was, and the wind gently moved the data on the ground, turning mercilessly. He looked at Jian Mo''s back, just gritted his teeth and asked sadly, "is it because he is Gu Beichen, so... You can trust him so much?" Jane Mo didn''t answer and didn''t stop. "And I, my two years can''t change your waiting for a moment..." Chu Zixiao laughed at himself, and his eyes became cold. "You''ve never loved me, have you?" Jane Mo still didn''t answer, and her steps were still walking mechanically... She didn''t even know what Chu Zixiao was talking about. The sadness under self mockery filled the handsome face of Chu Zixiao, but gradually, it was shrouded in haze. Hands, clenched. The sound of "Gaga" dislocation of bone joints becomes particularly treacherous at night. "Jane Mo, isn''t it?" Chu Zixiao asked with his life, as if... This is the last chance for each other. Jian Mo subconsciously stopped, but tears fell uncontrollably so painful! Such pain makes her dying! Chen... Where are you? I''m in pain Heavy breathing filled the air with pain. Jane Mo lifted her feet again and continued to move forward Chu Zixiao was completely desperate. He looked at Jian Mo''s back with scarlet eyes and said with gnashing teeth: "Jian Mo, you forced me, you forced me!" The roar behind him echoed in the air, and the roaring engine made a ''whoosh'' sound, sliding past Jian Mo, with a strong wind. Jane Mo didn''t feel it. She just dragged her heavier and heavier body forward. She didn''t know where the goal was. She just walked forward A gust of wind came, and Jane Mo just gently fanned her eyes. The tears in his eyes squeezed out and his face was cold when the wind blew. A car slowly followed behind Jian mo. The man sitting in the back seat had a deep vision and a cold smile on his mouth. "She is the woman Chen cares about?" Chapter 303 Morson looked at the man in the back seat from the rearview mirror and replied, "yes!" Shi Shaoqin''s smile was a little deeper. A pair of long and narrow Phoenix eyes were feminine and filled with an incomprehensible emotion, "take her back!" Morson frowned slightly, and then answered, "yes!" The car passed Jian Mo''s side in time. Shi Shaoqin slanted his eyes and saw a faint smile in his eyes. "You look good..." he said faintly, "Chen, I''m afraid you''ll be crazy?" "Qin Shao," mausen said in a slightly chilly voice, "are you going to let him know you''re here?" "The game has just begun. How soon has the mystery been unveiled?" Shi Shaoqin''s mouth was covered with a thin smile and cold, "it''s not fun!" Morson''s heart tightened and swallowed involuntarily. Shi Shaoqin sighed softly, "he didn''t erase all his will and didn''t let this woman leave... How could he be willing to stay with me?" If you are cold, it is the same as what comes out of hell, with a cold smell. Morson glanced at the handsome man in the back seat from the rearview mirror and sighed secretly God gave Qin Shao the most perfect appearance, but gave him the darkest heart. The people he was staring at, both men and women, had only one result in the end - death! Or be rejected by him and die Or because of possessiveness and want to be imprisoned around... But because of the constant "game", torture to death! On the Luocheng River Bridge, Mo Shaochen shook hands, supported his arms on the railing and had a deep vision. "Aren''t you going to tell Jane Mo about the past?" "I haven''t figured out how to say..." Gu Beichen stood there with his hands in his pockets and smiled at himself. "It should be said that I promised uncle Jane..." he paused again with a smile on his mouth. "Now it seems that he should call Dad!" Mo Shaochen smiled, but his smile was a little astringent. "I promise him to keep it a secret. It''s a last resort..." Gu Beichen said. "What is a last resort?" Mo Shaochen sighed, "Beichen, I don''t know why. I think things are getting more and more complicated." Gu Beichen''s face was as cold as carving, and there was no expression on it. A pair of eagle eyes were well connected with ink space, which made people can''t see to the end. "Who hurt Jian mo..." Gu Beichen''s voice still became cold and bloodthirsty under ruthlessness, "... Who can only stand in my opposition!" Mo Shaochen frowned in an instant. He got up and looked at Gu Beichen in horror How long haven''t you seen him look like this? Last time, I saw him when he came back after he disappeared for a few months! The surrounding air was gradually frozen because of the fierce air overflowing from Gu Beichen. Mo Shaochen only felt that the position of his heart seemed to press a stone, which made him feel uncomfortable. The "buzzing" vibration of the mobile phone broke the condensed atmosphere, and the haze on Gu beichenjun''s face gradually dissipated He took out his mobile phone and saw that it was Li Xiaoyue''s. He felt an inexplicable ''click'' in his heart. Pick it up and put it in your ear, "what''s the matter?" "Zixiao came to find Mo Mo, but they weren''t downstairs." Li Xiaoyue''s voice was a little worried, "I looked for a circle and didn''t see anyone. No one answered the phone to Momo..." Inexplicably, I felt uneasy and spread in an instant. "Did Zixiao call?" Gu Beichen asked coldly. "Not yet!" Li Xiaoyue flapped her eyelashes in a numb way. Because she was in a hurry, she was only looking for foam. Gu Beichen hung up and directly dialed Chu Zixiao''s past Chu Zixiao stood at the other end of the Los Angeles River. The car listened not far behind him. His mobile phone rang for a long time before he took back his sight and picked up "Is Mo''er with you?" Gu Beichen''s voice was cold. "No!" Chu Zixiao''s voice showed the alienation under the cold. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed abruptly, "where are you?" "La river!" Gu Beichen frowned in an instant, and turned around while his eyes were released. However, the Los Angeles River is the moat of Los Angeles, and it is impossible for him to reach the place within his sight. After hanging up, Gu Beichen called Jian Mo again Similarly, no one answered! The mobile phone flickered on Chu Zixiao''s co pilot''s seat, because it was buckled on the back, and the light was not very bright. Gu Beichen''s face was a little gloomy, and his uneasiness gradually spread "What''s the matter?" Mo Shaochen felt something wrong with Gu Beichen and asked with a frown. "Mo''er and Zixiao go out. Now people don''t know where to go..." Gu Beichen frowned. "No one answered the mobile phone." "Is she too nervous? Maybe... She went back alone? Where did she leave her cell phone?" Mo Shaochen speculated. "Impossible!" Gu Beichen stared. "She said that if she waited for Li Xiaoyue, she wouldn''t leave suddenly... Even if she left, Mo''er did things appropriately and wouldn''t stop telling me." At the same time, he dialed Xiao Jing. "Tune the monitoring near Lanhai community and see where Jian Mo people have gone?" Gu Beichen ordered coldly. Xiao Jing was stunned at first, and then said, "yes!" Gu Beichen hung up the phone, started the car and drove to the favorite place of Chu Zixiao in Luocheng River Xiao Jing''s phone arrived before he arrived at his destination. "According to the road condition monitoring, Chu Shao took his wife to Yujing lake!" Xiao Jing''s voice is a little dignified. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly and opened in an instant, and the ink pupil emitted two shocking lights. "Chu Shao seems to show Mrs. Shao something. Mrs. Shao doesn''t look right about leaving..." Xiao Jing said. "Later, the road section was tracked, but when the road section was monitored, Mrs. Shao didn''t appear again." "Go over there and have a look!" Gu Beichen spoke coldly. "I''ve gone that way..." Gu Beichen''s eyes were heavy and fierce. He pulled off the Bluetooth headset and pressed his foot on the accelerator for a few minutes. "Squeak -" After the harsh brake sound, the car stopped next to Chu Zixiao''s roller coaster. Gu Beichen got off the car. When Chu Zixiao looked back at him, he punched him Chu Zixiao instinctively avoided, but it was too late With a bang, Gu Beichen''s fist fell on his shoulder blade. "Chu Zixiao, do you have to make her suffer to make you happy?" Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and asked. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were dark, "I just let her see you clearly. It''s better to have a long pain than a short one!" Gu Beichen''s eyes were gloomy and cold, "you really let me down!" Then he turned and walked to the car At the right time, the twinkling light of stars came from Chu Zi roller coaster. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were suddenly cold, and then went to the co pilot and opened the door. I saw Jane Mo''s mobile phone flashing on it. Pick it up, it''s Li Xiaoyue''s! "The mobile phone is on the roller coaster. I''ll find her!" Gu Beichen said that the man had got on the car. "What exactly is Chu Zixiao looking for a girl for?" Li Xiaoyue''s heart inexplicably carried, "separated, where are the people? You can''t lose a big living person?" They are all people who know Jane Mo''s character. She can''t make everyone worry about her like this Gu Beichen was about to start the car and stopped Li Xiaoyue''s "lost" made his cells stiff Chapter 304 In the dark room without any light, there was nothing but the sound of breathing. Jane Mo woke up slowly and wanted to open her eyes to have a look, but because she was covered by black cloth, she didn''t say to see... She even had problems opening it. "Uh... Uh..." The same sealed mouth made Jane Mo unable to speak at all. She could only make a whine like a trapped animal in her throat. Fear gradually filled Jane Mo''s nerves At that time, she was walking on the road and her head was empty. Suddenly, someone covered her mouth with something. Then, before she could react, she fainted. Such a plot reminds her of the kidnapping in the TV series! Breathing more and more quickly, her mouth was sealed, and Jane Mo only felt that her nose was not enough for her to breathe She tried to control her emotions and wanted to calm down. She knew that ah Chen would come to her, certainly! "Uh... Uh..." Jane Mo rubbed her body. Such a quiet space swept her, which made her heartbeat skip a few beats. She''s trying to make a sound, whether it''s kidnapping or whatever... What''s it like to keep her here? Shi Shaoqin watched Jian Mo move through the video, and the corners of his mouth slightly hooked up, "a little like Chen!" With a sigh, he got up and went to the window He looked at the outside world greedily, with a touch of desolate sadness on his perfect face. The sound of "Di" broke the silence. Shi Shaoqin looked sideways and saw that it was hanging on the wall, and the originally hidden video device lit up "Qin Shao, Gu Beichen has found that Jian Mo is missing." Shi Shaoqin slightly hooked the corners of his lips and his eyes were deep. "After three months of ''training'', it''s really sensitive!" The faint voice floated in the air, with a treacherous look. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes narrowed slightly, and the narrow Phoenix eyes overflowed with a cold smile, "take a moment and tell others that they are here..." "Yes!" The man in the video device answered. Shi Shaoqin took back his sight and looked out again. There was a long lost excitement at the bottom of his eyes. Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing looked at the place where Jian Mo disappeared without any trace of struggle. Even... An old man in a public toilet nearby said he had never heard anything. "If Mrs. Shao really disappeared here, it seems to be professional!" Xiao Jing said in a frozen voice. Gu Beichen''s cold face was so indifferent that people couldn''t see what he was thinking at the moment. Xiao Jing didn''t speak any more, but waited quietly I don''t know how long it took. It seemed that the world was quiet without any sound. Then Gu Beichen said slowly, "Mo''er was taken away." No doubt, yes. "Chen Shao, is it the second master''s person?" Xiao Jing asked. Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but the eagle''s eyes narrowed slowly At the right time, the mobile phone rings. Gu Beichen looked at the call and picked it up. Listening to the voice of the people inside, his eyes were like a torch for a moment. Xiao Jing''s heart all mentioned his voice. To be honest, in Los Angeles... If Jane Mo is kidnapped, it''s a joke. "Chen Shao?" Seeing Gu Beichen hang up, he hurriedly asked. Gu Beichen didn''t say anything, but turned and walked to the car Xiao Jing hurried forward and got on Gu Beichen''s car directly. The car is speeding wildly on the road, and the air in the narrow carriage is thin because of its gravity Finally, the car stopped in front of a white villa. Gu Beichen looked at the villa shrouded in night and his eyes were very dark. "Young lady here?" Xiao Jing was surprised and got out of the car with Gu Beichen. It was quiet all around, which made people nervous. Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing were not walking fast. They were observing the surroundings and moving forward slowly. Reach out and push the door No lock, no light. Gu Beichen didn''t move. Xiao Jing had turned on the light With a bang, the bright light of the glass lamp lit up the whole line of sight. "No one..." Xiao Jing didn''t smell tension and murder in the air because of his habit for many years. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes moved slightly. After a week of indifference, they fell on the second floor. "Well..." A faint voice came from the empty silence, with a tone that made people feel excited. Gu Beichen almost said that there was action in an instant. Even, he forgot his calm stride and ran upstairs "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing was shocked and hurried forward. "Mo''er... Mo''er..." Gu Beichen searched room by room, shouting Jian Mo, as if he had forgotten whether there would be danger around him. Hearing the familiar voice, all the congealed emotions of Jane Morse broke up in an instant. She tried to wriggle and kept making a "whine" sound in her throat. With a bang, the door bounced against the wall and bounced back Gu Beichen squatted in front of Jian Mo with an arrow step, and then Xiao Jing was almost hit by the rebound door. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen picked up Jane Mo and looked at Xiao Jing first. Xiao Jing closed the door clearly. At the same time, Gu Beichen opened the cloth tied to Jian Mo''s eyes Jane Mo''s "Oh" sound is painful and stuffy. Even if there is no light, because the cloth strip is removed, her eyes are also astringent and painful. Gu Beichen gently covered Jian Mo''s eyes with a big palm, and used the temperature of the palm to ease the nerves around her eyes that were frozen due to tension "My mouth is covered with tape. I''m afraid it hurts a little." Gu Beichen said and endured it. Just before Jane Mo reacted, she was torn off. "Well, it hurts!" Jane Mo cried out in pain. Gu Beichen took her into his arms and held her tightly She didn''t know how scared he was that something would happen to her. The arm around Jian Mo was gradually tightened because of her forbearance, which made Jian Mo feel painful... However, she didn''t hum, but quietly felt Gu Beichen''s heartbeat. She knew... He would come! Jane Mo''s nose was slightly sour, so she let Gu Beichen hold her, and no one spoke I don''t know how long it took. Jane Mo just felt that she was strangled by Gu Beichen and couldn''t breathe. "Gu Beichen, do you want to suffocate me?" Jiao Chen''s voice was full of jokes. Gu Beichen hurriedly released Jian Mo, and a pair of eagle eyes penetrated the dark line of sight of Jian mo. Because they adapted to the darkness, the two people looked at each other in the air, but in an instant, there was a spark At the moment when his thin lips overlapped with his delicate softness, Xiao Jing deviated from his face and grinned secretly. At the same time, he felt that he didn''t know how to put his eyes? "Cough!" Xiao Jing coughed suddenly because he was choked by himself. Then he stared and hurriedly covered his mouth. The sight "frightened" looked at the two people who had kissed like glue, but suddenly separated He didn''t mean it, really didn''t mean it! But when the sight of "abundance and dissatisfaction" fell on him, Xiao Jing wailed for a while, and his year-end bonus would wave goodbye to him again Kind plug! "Well... You go on!" Xiao Jing hardened his head and said, "I... Go to inspect!" Words fall, others have slipped away Chapter 305 On the way back, Xiao Jing drove the car. Jian Mo called Li Xiaoyue first "Girl, what have you done? I can''t get through to you all the time?" Li Xiaoyue called and hurriedly said, "Mom, Gu Beichen and I are going to post a notice for you..." Jane Mo felt warm for a while. After looking at Beichen, she said, "the mobile phone fell on the roller coaster..." As she spoke, she was already uncomfortable with the sharp sight. As an uncle, it''s enough to eat his nephew''s vinegar... Jian Mo glared back at Gu Beichen. "I wipe it, you can be anxious to death!" Upon hearing this, Li Xiaoyue breathed out, "I thought you were thrown into the Los Angeles River by Chu Zixiao?" It''s said that Jane Mo is fine. Li Xiaoyue thinks she''s too worried Although Chu Zixiao feels something wrong, he can hurt Mo Mo She must have fought too many criminal lawsuits recently to dream. Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue said a few more words and hung up. Xiao Jing looked at her in the rearview mirror, and then said with a smile, "young lady, you''re a liar... Really open your mouth." "What can I do?" Jane Mo stared, "said I was stunned by someone who didn''t know who used ether, and then I was put in an empty villa?" Xiao Jing grinned and looked through the rearview mirror at Beichen. Gu Beichen''s cold face didn''t look too much, but a pair of ink pupils were deep and bottomless. Gu Beichen put Jian Mo''s hand into his palm and looked down at her wrist through the light of the street lamp. There, because the backhand is tied with a strangled mark. Guilt slipped across the bottom of his eyes. He sighed and looked at Jian Mo: "it''s right not to let Xiao Yue worry..." Jane Mo smiled and felt happy about his understanding. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo into his arms, put his chin against the top of her hair and didn''t speak The atmosphere in the car became quiet, but Xiao Jing knew... Some things were urgent. Today, Jane Mo was dizzy. She didn''t do anything and didn''t threaten... The other party told her where she was. Everything was strange. If it''s Gu mohuai or Jian Heng, it''s OK, but will they... Do that? Xiao Jing sent Gu Beichen and Jian Mo back to the villa in the middle of the mountain and left. However, when leaving, he exchanged eyes with Gu Beichen. "Hungry or not?" Gu Beichen asked Jian Mo gently. Jane Mo smiled, "scared and hungry..." she put her arm around Gu Beichen''s neck, "but when she saw you, she was full again!" "You''re full when you see me?" Gu Beichen asked in a low voice, full of danger. Jane Mo was stunned and immediately reflected that her words were indeed ambiguous. She couldn''t help laughing more brightly, "well, men can eat!" Gu Beichen''s eyes became deep and hot. "Mo''er, I''m sorry..." he said in a dark voice. "Don''t tell me you''re sorry..." Jane Mo restrained her smile. "Ah Chen, I know you don''t want to have such an accident! So don''t tell me you''re sorry." Gu Beichen''s heart was so moved by Jian Mo that she was still palpitating. However, because she didn''t want him to worry, she didn''t say anything... Even comforted him with a smile! Xu''s sight is too hot. Jian Mo is stared at by Gu Beichen, which can only be opposite his sight The next moment, when lips and tongues overlap in everything, sucking and licking... Has become the only way to vent each other at the moment. "What did Zixiao ask you for?" Gu Beichen asked softly in her ear as he pushed himself forward and became one with Jian mo. "Give me evidence..." Jane Mo didn''t hide, "prove that dad really died because of you!" Gu Beichen pushed himself deeper while his eyes were deep. While feeling the warmth she contained him, he asked, "do you believe it?" Jane Mo was already confused. "I promised you, the answer is only from you..." she looked at Gu Beichen. "So, even if what a ''truth'' thing is in front of me, I only believe you." Gu Beichen slightly narrowed his eyes, and there was a complex emotional overflow in the depths of the ink pupil Nothing is more difficult than your lover''s trust in you. "But..." Jane Mo Chua her lower lip and put her slender arm around Gu Beichen. "I was sad at that time..." "I understand!" Gu Beichen said in a low voice and comforted Jane Mo with a kiss. He understood that the pain of the wound being torn open Jane Zhanfeng''s death is Jane Mo''s wound! The night is addicted, and the ambiguities in the room render the air, showing the sweetness of different comforts. Jane Mo wondered in her heart that the person who caught her tonight seemed to be just to lead ah Chen to the past... But why didn''t anyone wait for the last villa? Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo in his arms, "don''t think about anything. You just need to live at your pace... I''ll think about the rest!" "If you use your brain more, you will grow old!" Jane Mo said with a smile. "Do you like it?" Jane Mo slightly looked up and kissed Gu Beichen on the Adam''s apple. She felt his sensitive little tremble. Then she picked her eyebrow and said, "it''s you, I like it!" Gu Beichen smiled and held Jian Mo tightly At night, the calm before the storm slipped. When the morning light lazily shines on every corner of Los Angeles, it highlights a new day, waiting for everyone. Gu Beichen sent Jian Mo to the company, "send me a text message every hour!" "Is it too frequent?" Jane was slightly stunned. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but looked at Jian Mo directly. Jane Mo immediately surrendered, then raised her hand and made an "OK" gesture before getting out of the car. What happened last night was like a dream. I woke up as if no one cared... But it was deeply branded in my heart. Gu Beichen watched Jian Mo enter Lingyu international before starting the car to leave. Jane Mo turned and looked at the car leaving, and smiled at the corners of her mouth... That smile showed her perseverance under determination. Ignoring other people''s strange and examining eyes, Jane Mo entered the elevator... But when she pressed the floor of the design department, her heart was a little heavy. Ding Dang''s betrayal left an indelible shadow in her heart of being sincere. One day, I was still busy Jian Mo''s design drawings are sometimes too absorbed. After an hour, he forgot to send a text message to Gu Beichen. The phone rang in no more than five minutes. Jane Mo didn''t want Gu Beichen to be so busy and had to worry about her. She simply set an alarm clock to remind herself "Jane, let''s go hiking at the weekend. Shall we go together?" Andy asked after receiving the design drawings. Jane Mo looked at the expectation in Andy''s eyes, thought for a while, and said, "there''s no problem with collective activities, but... It''s not a chance for you!" For foreigners, it is completely impractical to refuse, and Jian Mo decided to say it bluntly. Andy''s face was hurt, but he could only accept the cruel reality. Jane Mo wanted to comfort her, but she was afraid that Andy would misunderstand her. Finally, she simply gave up. After packing up and getting off work, Jane Mo went directly to the parking lot to drive and planned to go to the supermarket to buy something and cook at home... She still likes to do it by herself. It''s also a kind of happiness to watch Gu Beichen eat her cooking. A "Ding" sound came and the elevator arrived at the underground parking lot. Jane Mo went out when the elevator door opened Suddenly, a figure flashed out from one side. Surprised, Jian Mo subconsciously stepped back and looked at it... But when she saw the person blocking her, her pupils expanded instantly! "Xiao Mo," Jian Heng looked at Jian Mo with a slight hook in the corner of his mouth, "haven''t seen you for a long time..." Chapter 306 "What are you doing here?" Jane Mo quickly calmed down. She had no feelings for this'' brother ''except resentment. "That''s how you treat your brother?" Jane truss asked with a smile. Jane Mo frowned. "When questioning others, think about your behavior first..." she withdrew her eyes coldly and planned to leave. After knowing that the man that night was Gu Beichen, she had nothing to be threatened by Jian Heng. "Xiaomo, let''s have dinner together?" Jane truss turned and looked at Jane Mo, "after all... I haven''t seen you for so long." Jian Mo stopped, first clenched his hand, and then turned to look at Jian Heng, "if... You still have the last bit of conscience, please... Don''t appear in front of me again. This is the last thing you should do as a ''brother''!" She said gnashing her teeth. Finally, after staring angrily, she left without stopping. Jane truss didn''t speak again this time. She just looked at the back of Jane Mo leaving, and a strange smile gradually overflowed from the corners of her mouth Such a smile, with a deep bloodthirsty. It''s just... Because of her anger, Jane Mo didn''t find that Jane truss is different at the moment. Jane Mo clutched the steering wheel angrily and thought of what she was threatened by Jane truss four years ago. Up to now, she feels very stupid. The mobile phone ring suddenly came. After Jane Mo looked at the incoming call, she pressed the Bluetooth headset, "ah Chen?" "Are you off duty?" Gu Beichen''s soft voice came, full of charm. "Well, I''m going to the supermarket..." Jane Mo said with a smile. She didn''t tell Gu Beichen that Jane truss was looking for her, but said, "have dinner at home in the evening, and then... Let''s go and see if the milk bag is good?" She really wants milk bags... From small to large, although milk bags are very independent, but he hasn''t left her. "OK..." Gu Beichen answered softly. Jane Mo turned the car into the underground parking lot of the supermarket. "I''m in the supermarket. Come back after you''re busy." "Well, good!" Gu Beichen answered again, but he didn''t hang up. Jane Mo seemed to understand Gu Beichen''s meaning and didn''t hang up. She just said, "hang up first..." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and put down his cell phone after Jane Mo hung up. Looking at the computer screen with a cold and distant view, there is the information of the villa investigated by Xiao Jing The owner emigrated abroad last year. The house was vacant, but someone came to clean it regularly. And yesterday, it was an empty window for cleaning. Such places should have been monitored, but... After Xie Haitian invaded the system, he found nothing. Or the other party goes to heaven and earth! Either the other party has a computer master. Gu Beichen showed a sneer on his thin lips. The last time... Xie Haitian said that the other party has a very powerful hacker team. What is the other party''s purpose? Kidnapped Mo''er, did nothing, and even told others where he was? Gu Beichen''s arms supported the armrest of the chair, his hands curled slightly, the back of his hands against his chin, his eyes drooped slightly, and collected his thoughts at the bottom of his eyes "Dong Dong!" There was a knock on the door, and then Xiao Jing came in. "Chen Shao, Jian Heng is back!" Xiao Jing said and put the picture in his hand in front of Gu Beichen. It''s a monitoring map of the airport entry and exit. It''s a little vague, but obviously... The other party is really Jian truss. Gu Beichen looked at the photo with his long and powerful fingers. It was different from the decadence and obscenity of a gambler four years ago. Obviously, now the whole person looks energetic. It seems that... He threw Jane truss to Angola and made him? A touch of irony slipped through the ink pupil. Gu Beichen opened his thin lips and said coldly, "what name do you use?" "Gu, Heng!" Xiao Jing spoke slowly. Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at Xiao Jing, as if confirming. Xiao Xiao nodded and said, "I called Xiao Nan... She''s going to come back from Holland. If there''s no special circumstances, it''s the second master who took Jian Heng from Angola." Gu Beichen smiled. "Second uncle, he doesn''t have a son... Find a son to compete for the emperor?" Light Yi''s voice was filled with coldness under ridicule, which fell slightly into the line of sight on the photo, and faintly overflowed coldness. "When did he come back?" Gu Beichen dropped his words and threw the photo onto the desk, with a casual coldness. "Yesterday noon!" Xiao Jing''s voice was slightly chilly, with a touch of doubt. Coincidence or something? Jian Heng came back at noon yesterday and his wife was taken away at night... If he did it, it can be understood as a demonstration. Gu Beichen understood Xiao Jing''s meaning. He slowly leaned back on his seat, meditated for a while, shook his head, "what a coincidence..." "I''ll send someone to keep an eye on Jane truss!" Xiao Jing said. Gu Beichen nodded and his eyes fell on the photo again... I don''t know why, he didn''t feel "at ease" because of Jian Heng''s return, but he had a kind of hairy feeling in his heart. It''s like... There''s a pair of hands behind it, controlling it. After buying something, Jian Mo went back to the mid level villa. Compared with lanze garden, it is more inconvenient here. "Alas, I really can''t understand the world of the rich!" Jane Mo was cooking and murmuring to herself. The servant and aunt Luo were standing at the kitchen door. The young lady who heard this story to reality looked at each other one by one. They were at a loss as they watched her cook skillfully. "Aunt Luo..." Jane Mo looked back at Aunt Luo and the crowd with a smile. "You go and be busy. You should give me a chance to please tonight?" Aunt Luo smiled kindly as soon as she heard it. "Young lady said so, you can''t do without giving it." Although she just got in touch, she fell in love with this girl... Chen Shao needs someone close to her. Aunt Luo signaled that the servants had dispersed, and the villa was left to Jane Mo to toss about When Gu Beichen came back, it was already seven o''clock, and Jian Mo just made the last soup. "The nose is really sharp. You''ll be back just after the meal..." Jane Mo stirred Gu Beichen''s tie at will, and her bright eyes were full of a flattering smile. Gu Beichen dropped a kiss on Jian Mo''s forehead, "no way, who wants his wife to cook wholeheartedly? You must have a sharp nose!" Jane Mo was warm in her heart. She took Gu Beichen''s suit and coat and hung it up. Then when he washed his hands, he had filled the rice. While Gu Beichen was eating, he looked at the little woman opposite with deep eyes, and his thin lips waved a satisfied smile "I don''t have anything to eat on my face. Why are you always looking at me?" Jian Mo was stared at by Gu Beichen''s hot eyes, and asked discontentedly. "Beautiful and delicious!" "..." Jane Mo said as soon as she heard it and stared, "if you use my words to fight me back in the future... I''ll charge the copyright fee!" "Mine are yours..." Gu Beichen''s eyes were sharp and deep. "Wait, there''s something for you to sign!" "What?" Jane Mo asked subconsciously. Chapter 307 "Eat first..." Gu Beichen said faintly, "don''t you want to see the milk bag?" At the mention of milk bags, Jane Mo''s thoughts were immediately taken away "Regret letting him live in school!" Jane Mo muttered, "I think so of him. I don''t know if he thinks of me?" Looking at Jian Mo''s jealous look, Gu Beichen couldn''t help but hook his thin lips, "I guess I''ll miss me a little more." "Why?" Jian Mo immediately stared at Gu Beichen discontentedly, as if Gu Beichen would strangle him if he said the reason. Gu Beichen picked an evil radian at the end of his eyebrow and said calmly, "I think you will become stupid... I think I will be smarter." "Gu Beichen!" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she immediately clenched her teeth. "What does it mean to think I''m stupid?" Looking at Jian Mo''s angry appearance, Gu Beichen''s smile on his thin lips gradually filled up Jian Mo knows that she has been fooled by Gu Beichen again. She is very depressed... She really can''t play well! He was eating angrily. In that way, he was chewing like Gu Beichen "Is it fragrant?" Gu Beichen suddenly asked. "Incense!" Jane Mo''s subconscious answer. Gu Beichen smiled, "that means... You really want to eat me now! So, I think it tastes delicious..." Jian Mo thought for a long time before he understood what Gu Beichen meant. He saw that she took rice as him at the moment, so... Would he ask like this? "Gu Beichen, you can be more narcissistic!" Jane Mo said, but the depression had gradually dissipated, and a smile was on the corner of her mouth. "Call your husband!" Gu Beichen is dissatisfied. Jane Mo laughed. Just when Gu Beichen thought she couldn''t shout, she suddenly shouted, "husband..." Gu Beichen''s heart was suddenly filled with sweetness. "You said... Will you one day be a chef?" Jane Mo''s face was flattering. "Yes!" Gu Beichen said with deep eyes. As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she turned her eyes incredulously, "brag! You''re not set by the normal overbearing President..." "But I will try anything because I want to make you happy!" Gu Beichen''s voice became deep and magnetic. Jane Mo was joking. At the moment, because of Gu Beichen''s words, her nose suddenly became sour, "you are so old that I am so moved and spoil me. Is it really good?" Gu Beichen gently raised his thin lips, "because I think you can''t leave me after you get used to my good..." Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen and her sight gradually became deeper. I don''t know why. She thought Gu Beichen was wrong? "Are you... Hiding something from me?" Jane Mo asked with a slightly sour nose. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes and sighed slightly in his heart This little woman is so sensitive and smart, what should she do? "You think I''m hiding something from you?" Gu Beichen is light. "Did you spread any gossip?" Jane Mo said, "I heard... The star named Lu man has returned home recently!" Gu Beichen''s sideburns moved. "I''m glad you''re jealous... But to be clear, Lu man has never had anything to do with me." "Who knows?" Jane Mo glanced. "Anyway, you can go to the guest room tonight!" "..." Gu Beichen''s eyes became deep, and there was not much emotion on his cold, carved face. He just said slowly, "well, you can also sleep in the guest room!" "..." Jane Mo opened her mouth slightly, then said angrily, "is it really good for you, a crazy president, to mess with me here?" "It''s about your own interests. You can forget the means!" Gu Beichen looked serious. Jane Mo twitched the corners of her mouth and felt that she was not good at learning every time. She wanted to get a bargain from Gu Beichen. It was really stupid. After dinner, Gu Beichen took Jane Mo to Spencer. However, I didn''t know until I arrived that the school organized camping activities, and Jane Jie wasn''t at school! "The milk bag didn''t tell me..." Jane Mo tilted her mouth a little depressed. Gu Beichen gently stroked her hair and said with a far-reaching eye: "when you come back from camping, take him home for one night, huh?" Jane Mo suddenly brightened her eyes, "really?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered, "I''ll pick it up!" "You say you miss him..." Jane Mo said quickly. Gu Beichen smiled and nodded dotingly... Although he knew it clearly, Xiaojie would know it was Mo''er''s idea. On the way back, Gu Beichen said, "go back and drop Xiaojie''s account back, huh?" "Yes!" Jane Mo answered. "Shall we have a wedding?" Gu Beichen asked again. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and smiled from his heart, "good!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo in his eyes, and the corners of his mouth were filled with a smile... That smile, however, reached the bottom of his eyes in an instant. One word, he knew clearly that Mo''er was going to give her life to him completely Mo''er, being able to bear your life is a new starting point of my life... The starting point of my heart! Gu Beichen thought silently in his heart. Because of Jian Mo''s firmness, he also firmly believes in the future life... He will not become confused because of the past. Car, parked in the villa parking space. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and walked to the house "Ah Chen..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered gently. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen, "maybe you find me not good enough in the future. What should I do?" Gu Beichen stopped. The moonlight poured down and fell on Jian Mo''s face. It was bright and exciting She was very beautiful. Now she shows the posture of a little woman in love, which is even more moving. "You don''t need to be so good..." Gu Beichen''s voice was mellow like the low sound of a cello. "You just need to accompany me to my old age!" The heartstrings are fluctuating, and all the nerves of Jane Mo are like wrapped in honey "Ah Chen... What if our feelings change?" Jane asked again. Gu Beichen smiled, "break up... I''ll chase you again!" "I didn''t think we Gu would say sweet words like this..." Jane Mo got angry. "What else can''t I do for you?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows, but his sight became deep, "so happy, should you be obedient later?" Jane Mo stood on tiptoe and kissed Gu Beichen on the corner of his lips. She said sweetly, "I''ve always been obedient..." Gu Beichen''s eyes grew deeper and deeper. When a strange emotion slipped at the bottom of his eyes, he turned and pulled Jian Mo into the villa, "wait for what I asked you to sign, don''t refuse!" Jane Mo frowned, "what do you sign?" Then she asked deliberately, "you don''t have to, or your mother forces you... And then you have to let me sign another divorce agreement?" At last, Jane Mo suddenly felt that what she said seemed quite in line with the plot, and immediately stared, "Gu Beichen, can''t you really be so bloody?" Chapter 308 When Jian Mo asked about the exit, he took out his hand in Gu Beichen''s palm. The breath had begun to say in disorder: "you said, no matter what happens, we should trust each other and face it together!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, and a strange emotion was fleeting at the bottom of his eyes. "But now?" Jane Mo Ning''s voice was light. Because she endured the rising sadness, her chest rose and fell. Gu Beichen''s sight became deep and bottomless. He coagulated Jian Mo deeply, and his heart was a little sour. "Zixiao put the evidence in front of me, but because he promised you, he only got the answer from you..." Jane moo said to her lips, "I firmly believe you!" Jian Mo''s eyes were slightly red. "Gu Beichen, if you can''t do it, why do you ask me to do it?" Gu Beichen came forward and took Jian Mo into his arms with his long arm. "No wonder Xiao Jie also said you were stupid..." He sighed, a little helpless, but more moved. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen shouted heavily, his chin against Jian Mo''s head and his eyes were deep. "I''ve worked so hard to recover you... How can I be willing to let you go again? I couldn''t do the stupid thing four years ago. In the end, Jian Mo not only had no strength to provoke, but also had the strength to beg for mercy, which was crushed by Gu Beichen and completely submerged under his overbearing and tender attack! Indulge in joy at night, but also calm down under the treacherous In the dark room, there was only the brightness of the notebook display screen, and Shi Shaoqin''s face was illuminated for half a day. The narrow Phoenix eyes gently fell on the screen and saw a communication sent out by the FBI. ¡ª¡ªIt has been confirmed that the new product silence, named "Silence", comes from Mogong, because it will lurk in the human body! The emergence of silence will cause competition among various forces! Chapter 309 the second day. When the sun penetrated the heavy curtains and mischievously shot into the bedroom, the Jianmo biological clock rang. "Good morning, husband..." Jane Mo hummed and turned over in Gu Beichen''s arms. She is so tired Last night, Gu Beichen''s combat effectiveness was beyond ordinary people. He ate her from front to back, left to right, and begged for mercy! To be honest, I''m going to try my best to please the gold Lord... I''m going to use all her previous skills on her. "Good morning!" Gu Beichen said, after a kiss gently fell on the top of Jian Mo''s hair, he said jokingly, "it will take at least half an hour from the mid mountain to your company without traffic jam. Are you sure you want to continue to sleep?" Jane Mo opened her eyes and turned to Gu Beichen to see if he was fooling her again. But when Gu Beichen held her mobile phone to Jian Mo''s eyes, she looked at the moment of time, her pupils widened, quickly turned over and got out of bed. However, due to excessive force, her body was overloaded again last night. She only felt that her waist was going to break at that moment "Well..." Jane Mo was angry. "Can''t you control yourself?" "No way. I''ve been a monk for four years. There''s too much storage!" Gu Beichen said without changing his face. Jane Mo looked back and gouged him out, and then got out of bed... She didn''t understand. Men use more strength. Why aren''t they tired? Gu Beichen suddenly gathered his eyes when Jian Mo was wearing slippers, and the man also got up, "what''s the matter with your arm?" "Huh?" Jane Mo doubted and looked at her left arm along Gu Beichen''s line of sight I saw a dark red as the size of a child''s fist on it, which was slightly swollen. "Did you suck too much last night?" Jian Mo was immediately dissatisfied, "how can I wear short sleeves?" She asked, looking angrily at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen blackened his face. "Can my mouth suck so much?" He got up, took Jian Mo''s arm and looked at it. It felt like being stared at by poisonous mosquitoes. "It''s estimated that mosquitoes bite?" Jane Mo said suspiciously. She didn''t know if it was a psychological effect. She suddenly felt itchy. Instinctively, she felt her hand and wanted to scratch However, before he touched his hand, Gu Beichen opened it. "My hands are full of bacteria, and I scratch them?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly deep, and then he looked at the red and swollen place on Jian Mo''s arm. The villa is cleaned every day. Mosquitoes and other things rarely appear in the house. How can they be bitten like this? Jane Mo didn''t think so. She just pulled her arm and said, "I''ll reduce the swelling when I look back... I''ll wash first." With that, the man hurried to the bathroom. Gu Beichen stood and looked at the figure that had disappeared in the bathroom. Jianmei gradually frowned I don''t know if he is too sensitive. Obviously, it shouldn''t be a big deal. However, because it appears on Jane Mo, he always thinks about bad places Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually became deep and bottomless. Listening to the sound of washing in the bathroom, he couldn''t help laughing at himself. While brushing her teeth, Jian Mo looked at the achievements covered by Gu Beichen, glanced at her mouth, and finally fell on her arm. The red one looked strange, but she didn''t think much. It was completely bitten by mosquitoes Hurried downstairs after washing, aunt Luo has prepared breakfast. "Young lady, have something to eat before you go to work?" Aunt Luo asked with a smile. Jane Mo looked at the time and was a little tight. She asked sheepishly, "well... Can I take it away?" Aunt Luo looked at Jane Mo and blushed with embarrassment, nodded with a smile, and then packed her a breakfast. "Thank you!" After Jane Mo took it, she kissed aunt Luo on the face, and then naturally took breakfast and hurried out of the villa. Aunt Luo was stunned and didn''t respond for a long time Until the sound of slow footsteps came from upstairs, she suddenly woke up and looked at Gu Beichen, "young lady is really cute..." After her heart praised her, she turned around with a smile and poured coffee for Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep. While sitting down, he asked, "aunt Luo likes her?" "More popular than Shen Chu!" Aunt Luo is honest. She is an old man who takes care of her family and has devoted her whole life to her family... She is not so much a servant as Gu Beichen. In fact, they all treat her as a family member. And Gu Jia is indeed her home in this life Aunt Luo put the coffee in front of Gu Beichen. "Chen seldom has a chance. He should take her to see the old man!" "Well, wait for the wedding day..." Gu Beichen raised the corners of his mouth and looked a little deep. "When does Chen Shao plan to hold the wedding?" Aunt Luo smiled and asked, "I have to clean up the villa in advance." Gu Beichen pondered slightly, "the beginning of next month!" He owes Jane a proposal and wedding... He missed it four years ago. This time, he''s still safe to propose in marriage! Gu Beichen smiled secretly and felt that the black coffee he drank seemed to be sweetened. "Madam, I''m afraid I won''t satisfy Chen Shao..." aunt Luo frowned slightly and had to remind Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s smile gradually converged, "you can''t get her blessing, but no one can change the established things." "I won''t agree that Beichen and Sumer''s daughter are together..." Timely, cen Lanxi''s sharp voice came from Gu''s manor. Gu Moyuan coagulated Cen Lanxi and didn''t speak. "Do Jane and Sumer have to stare at the family man?" CEN Lanxi looked at Gu Moyuan and said with gnashing teeth, "is there no man in the world?" Gu Moyuan frowned slightly, "Lanxi, how many times do you want me to say it? There''s nothing between me and Su mo..." "Nothing. You would have dismissed her because I found out?" CEN Lanxi stared, "Gu Moyuan, even if there is no such thing, how does Xiao Wan''s thing count?" Gu Moyuan frowned more tightly. Looking at Cen Lanxi''s ferocious face, he was worried about her recurrence "Lan Xi, Xiao Wan''s affair has nothing to do with Jane Zhanfeng. You saw the court judgment at that time." Gu Moyuan said, "do you really want to kill Beichen?" "Shut up!" CEN Lanxi stared, "how can I force my son to death? I can only force him to death..." "Shut up!" Gu Moyuan suddenly sharply interrupted Cen Lanxi''s words, with a look of panic in his eyes. CEN Lanxi began to breathe heavily. I don''t know if it was because Gu Moyuan yelled at her. Her whole face was covered with sharp and ferocious under the haze. Gu Moyuan came forward, took Cen Lanxi''s hand and tried to calm her mood. "You said you could control your mood, we just came back..." he swallowed, obviously nervous, "you said you wanted your son, you said you could, Lanxi!" Gu Moyuan looked at Cen Lanxi in panic. "The past... Let''s not mention it again, okay? Lanxi, can''t mention it... Do you understand?" Chapter 310 CEN Lanxi gradually calmed down under Gu Moyuan''s nervous sight. She swallowed it secretly, and her mood was slowly relieved. Seeing that she had eased a lot, Gu Moyuan just let her go, "have you calmed down?" CEN Lanxi closed her eyes, took a few deep breaths, slowly opened her eyes and looked at Gu Moyuan in horror, "Moyuan, I''m sorry! I..." "Lanxi, there are some things we agreed on, huh?" Gu Moyuan''s voice was light and dignified. "I just lost control..." Cen Lanxi''s breath was still a little messy. Gu Moyuan poured water for Cen Lanxi. "Lanxi, you know the character of Beichen. No one can stop what he wants to do... He said that night. Do you really want to see him become what he used to be?" CEN Lanxi drank water and hung her eyes. She couldn''t let go of the fact that Jian Mo was Gu Beichen''s wife. Gu Moyuan heaved a sigh and knew that there was still a process for Cen Lanxi to accept it. Now, the difficulty lies in Beichen''s perseverance... There is no chance of detour. ¡­¡­ As soon as Li Yunze arrived at the hospital, he received a call from Gu Beichen and asked jokingly, "call me at this time... You won''t tell me that you can''t get up when you''re dead. Let me save you?" Gu Beichen''s cold face was so indifferent that he didn''t answer Li Yunze''s teasing. He just asked, "are you in the hospital at noon?" "No surgery today, not necessarily." Li Yunze said calmly, "why?" "I''ll take Jian Mo over at noon..." Gu Beichen was always worried about the piece on Jian Mo''s arm. "Eh?" Li Yunze''s eyes lit up in an instant, "so fast?" Gu Beichen frowned, "what''s so fast?" "Isn''t Jane pregnant again?" Li Yunze asked subconsciously, "I''m not sure. I''ll arrange a gynecologist for you..." he said, and he hooked his lips. "..." Gu Beichen said coldly, "how long has she been back? Can you be more reliable as a doctor?" Li Yunze smiled, "you should say, you just captured her for a few days..." "..." Gu Beichen suddenly blackened his face. "I''ll wait for you in the hospital at noon." Li Yunze suddenly fell out of sight and saw a figure slip by. He hung up the phone quickly, and then the man hurried after him. However, when people came to the elevator, the elevator had been closed. "What''s she doing here?" Li Yunze frowned and murmured, then looked at the closed elevator door and turned to the office. Jian Mo leaned in the tea room, ate the cakes ordered by Gu Beichen, and sent him a text message with a smile: do you use my money for the things you send now? Gu Beichen responded calmly: it is also an interest to please the gold Lord with the gold Lord''s money. Jane Mo immediately smiled and opened her eyes. She liked Gu Beichen''s shameless way of speaking to her alone. "Mo Mo," Mo Xiaoya mixed her coffee and couldn''t help laughing at Jane Mo''s sweet little woman, "take your Gu with you when you go hiking on weekends?" "Can I take my family?" Jane was stunned. Mo Xiaoya smiled. "As for the activities of the design department, there are many people anyway..." she said, deliberately lowering her voice, "I take my family!" Jane Mo''s eyes lit up as soon as she heard it. "Do you agree with Da Xiong?" Mo Xiaoya raised the corner of her mouth and shrugged her lips. "I didn''t feel emotional before, but later I found that people can really get along with each other..." "Da Xiong is very good. He has been consistent with you for so many years." Jian Mo leaned on the table and sighed, "Xiaoya, it''s not easy to meet a man who is determined to you. If you feel moved, you should cherish it." "Experience?" Mo Xiaoya meets Jane Mo and asks with a smile. Jane Mo has nothing to hide, "well, experience." As she spoke, she couldn''t help remembering that there were not many people in the design department in the past, but at least everyone was very harmonious at that time. Seeing that there was a touch of sadness between Jian Mo''s eyebrows, Mo Xiaoya knew that Dingdang''s affairs had always caused her no small harm, "Dingdang''s affairs have passed in the past, huh?" "How can you let go so quickly?" Jane Mo sighed. The voice of mobile phone text message came in time, and Jane Mo opened it President Gu: has the swelling of the arm subsided? Jane Mo subconsciously looked at her arm. What was it like in the morning or what: much better, no itching! Less than a minute after the text message was sent, Jane Mo''s phone rang. She put down her mouth and answered, "hmm?" "I''ll pick you up at noon." Gu Beichen spoke softly. "What are you doing?" Jane Mo asked subconsciously. "Take you to Yunze..." Jane Mo''s heart was sweet, but she was a little sad and said, "I''m bitten by mosquitoes. Don''t you want to go to the hospital?" She suddenly remembered that four years ago, she just sprained her foot. Gu Beichen just took her to orthopedics to see an expert At that time, I just thought that man was awkward, but now I find that it was the man''s consideration and concern. "Just go and have a look, huh?" Gu Beichen asked lightly. In a low voice, Jane Mo couldn''t bear to refuse, "HMM..." Gu Beichen raised his thin lips and said two words before hanging up the phone. "Your general manager is so warm..." Mo Xiaoya said with a smile while Jane Mo hung up the phone. Would such a cold hearted and bloodthirsty man be too tender and careful? "Must......" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and agreed with her face. However, I felt a little fluffy because of Gu Beichen''s tension. She looked at her arm and poked it with her hand. It was a little hard... Except that it didn''t itch, all the symptoms were like being bitten by mosquitoes. noon. Xiao Jing drives and Gu Beichen comes to pick up Jian Mo and goes to Huakang hospital. When Li Yunze saw the lump on Jane''s arm, he really wanted to make complaints about it. Beichen worried that his wife could understand, but was that too much? However, if you think you are a single dog now, forget it Otherwise, looking back, he didn''t feel good and let Gu Beichen choke to death. The gain is not worth the loss. "Should be bitten by mosquitoes?" Jane Mo asked softly. Li Yunze mainly focuses on thoracic surgery and Neurosurgery, but he doesn''t involve much in dermatology... Seeing Gu Beichen worried, he simply called the attending doctor of dermatology to check Jian mo. The attending doctor looked for a long time and wanted to say that it was a kind of insect bite. Just prescribe some ointment and wipe it However, when he saw Gu Beichen''s dignified face, he still let the nurse draw blood. "It will take about half an hour to come out," said Li Yunze. "Go downstairs for dinner first?" Gu Beichen nodded slightly, looked at Jian Mo, who was dignified by his nervousness, and said softly, "that day is too strange. It''s better to be careful." Chapter 311 Jane morhu smiled and nodded, but she couldn''t help thinking. It''s not often shown in TV dramas that... People secretly inject poison into that person after being arrested? Gu Beichen''s worry is normal, and they also seek peace of mind. At dinner, Li Yunze knew that Jian Mo had been missing for several hours before. He couldn''t help but agree with Gu Beichen''s bringing Jian Mo to check. He directly called the blood test room and asked him to have some special items tested. After eating, I went upstairs and several quick items came out, which showed that everything was normal... There are still several results to be in the afternoon. Gu Beichen first sent Jian Mo back to the company and asked Li Yunze to call him when he got the result. Li Yunze watched the two men leave, turned to the blood test room, and then took a blood smear to test another one "Li Shao, the other results come out..." Li Yunze''s vision is still on the instrument screen, "result?" "All normal, no special findings..." Li Yunze paused slightly and looked at the chemist. "Are you sure?" The chemist nodded, "well." "Well, it''s all right..." Li Yunze answered and continued to look at the blood cultivation samples. He was not relieved until he heard the "drip" sound of the machine and saw that there were no strange pictures on the display. Out of the blood test room, Li Yunze called Gu Beichen, "all possible items have been checked, and everything is normal..." he couldn''t help laughing, "Beichen, you''re still too worried." "It''s always good to be careful!" Gu Beichen said in a low voice. Xu is really that he is too nervous Because of his mother''s opposition, he couldn''t help thinking of Shi Shaoqin Thinking of the means that tortured him at the beginning, he was subconsciously afraid that he was the one who was afraid to take Jian mo. Gu Beichen laughed at himself. For so many years, don''t say that Shi Shaoqin won''t appear here... He can''t leave that place. With a "drop", the internal telephone interrupted Gu Beichen''s thoughts. "Chen Shao, meet JK shareholders in ten minutes." Susan''s steady voice came. "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered and immediately cut off the internal telephone. Since the emperor absolutely controlled JK four years ago, he has been secretly eating away at JK in recent years It was JK''s that night. The meeting room was dignified. After the acquisition of JK, Gu Beichen seldom participated in JK''s meeting, and each participation represents another change of JK. The footsteps of "pedaling" came steadily. As the footsteps approached, people in the conference room mentioned their voices one by one If Shen Hangzhi is a vicious man, Gu Beichen can only go beyond it. Gu Beichen stood at the top of the conference table. The eagle''s eyes crossed a circle and sat down calmly. "How many people are missing?" Gu Beichen lifted his thin lips lightly, and his voice was indifferent without any tone. Shen Hangzhi didn''t open his mouth. He tapped his hand gently on the table without making a sound, but he was very regular. That is, when the atmosphere in the conference room is suddenly stiff and everyone under pressure is out of breath, the door of the conference room opens again In addition to Gu Beichen and Shen Hangzhi, everyone subconsciously looked at the door I saw a man in a silver gray narrow suit standing there with his pocket in one hand, with a sinister smile on his mouth. His sight slipped around and fell on Gu Beichen. "Sorry, I''m late!" Gu Beichen tilted his head and picked up his eagle eyes. When he saw that the speaker was Jian Chang, his cold face was so indifferent that there was no expression ¡­¡­ Jane Mo looked at her arm from time to time. The place was still swollen and didn''t feel anything. All items have been tested. Gu Beichen just sent her a text message saying it''s okay... But I don''t know why. It''s always like putting things aside. Jane Mo laughed at herself and felt that she was also made sensitive by Gu Beichen. "Dong Dong!" The knock on the door interrupted Jian Mo''s thoughts. He saw Andy come in, motioned her, and spread the picture in his hand on the design table Jane Mo walked over, listened to Andy''s explanation, gave her own opinions from time to time, and improved the whole design. ¡°OK£¡¡± Andy snapped his fingers and said, "no problem. You can send it to the other side tomorrow. If there is no problem in the whole process, you can make renderings." With that, he stretched his waist and said, "I can climb the mountain and go hiking at ease next weekend." Andy is a big sunny boy. He loved sports when he was in England. He has been in Los Angeles for nearly a month. He finally had a chance to relax and be with Jane mo. for him, he was very happy. The pleasant ring of the mobile phone rings. Jane Mo goes to her desk and picks it up. Seeing that it''s a strange number, she doesn''t care. "Hello, Jane Mo!" The other party didn''t speak, but could hear the sound of shallow breathing. "Hello?" Jane Mo whispered and frowned slightly. "Let''s have dinner later!" There was a domineering voice on the phone. Jane Mo''s eyebrows wrinkled more tightly, "who are you...?" The other party was silent again, as if looking for the right words, "Gu Beichen''s mother!" "..." Jane Mo twitched uncontrollably at the corners of her mouth, and her heart was a little frozen, but she shouted politely, "Mom..." "I haven''t admitted your daughter-in-law yet. Please call me Mrs. gu!" CEN Lanxi coldly interrupted Jian Mo''s words. Jane Mo sighed quietly, thinking about the other party''s mother Gu Beichen, so she endured, "Mrs Gu!" "At six o''clock, I''ll wait for you at Blossom & TB." CEN Lanxi said coldly and didn''t give Jane Mo a chance. He hung up the phone. Listening to the hanging sound of "Dudu Dudu" coming from inside, Jane Mo hung her hand weakly. ¡°Jane£¿¡± Andy''s blue eyes were full of doubts. He has been studying Chinese very hard recently, but obviously, the effect is not significant. Jane Mo shrugged. "It''s all right!" With that, she took a breath secretly, and then sent Andy out. After going out, she thought about it and sent a text message to Gu Beichen. Mo''er: the beauty has an appointment in the evening. My husband will solve the dinner by himself! Jane Mo estimated that there would be no good "result" when she went to see Cen Lanxi later, and she didn''t want Gu Beichen to be caught in the middle. She didn''t intend to tell him that she was going to see his mother. Gu Beichen didn''t reply to the text message. Jian Mo estimated that he was in a meeting or busy, so he didn''t send it again. When it was time to get off work, Gu Beichen didn''t reply to the text message Jane Mo drove to blossom & TB. When the car was parked in the parking space and looked past, she could just see Cen Lanxi Shuya sitting near the window, Jian Mo''s heart gradually became dignified Chapter 312 Jane Mo converged her sight, took a deep breath, sighed... Then released her seat belt and got out of the car. CEN Lanxi looked out of the window and fell on Jian mo. At a glance, she withdrew her sight. Hang your eyes, slide your fingers on the mobile phone, then press the mobile phone out and put it aside. "Hello, how many people, please?" At the right time, the voice of the waiter came. Jane Mo smiled at Cen Lanxi''s position and said politely, "I have an appointment." The waiter looked at her, "please follow me..." Under the guidance of the waiter, Jane Mo came to Cen Lanxi, turned her mouth and opened her mouth: "Mrs. gu!" "Sit down!" CEN Lanxi spoke faintly, and his every move was quiet and noble. Just, in a pair of eyes, there are alienation under indifference. Jian Mo automatically ignored Cen Lanxi''s unkindness and sat down opposite This person is Gu Beichen''s mother in the end. No matter how, she has to bear it when looking at his face. The waiter took two meal lists, gave them to the two people respectively, and stood quietly aside. Jane Mo looked at it casually and said softly, "give me a C meal, thank you!" She handed the menu back to the waiter. CEN Lanxi always paid attention to Jian Mo, and all his actions were graceful, arrogant and impetuous... Just a touch of pride. That''s the pride. She doesn''t like it! "B meal!" CEN Lanxi also handed the menu back to the waiter. The waiter answered, and then a sommelier came and left with red wine according to the meal ordered by the two. Blossom & TB is a large chain western restaurant, which was formerly owned by Emperor. Later, Gu Nanyi exchanged emperor''s 5% share for the whole management right. In less than five years, Gu Nanyi has completely built this place into a high-end restaurant and a favorite place for celebrities. CEN Lanxi didn''t speak, and Jian Mo sat quietly. But I don''t know how long it took, until the sound of a text message came, interrupting the frozen atmosphere. Jian Mo estimated that Gu Beichen replied to him after he was busy... He was about to get his mobile phone, and Cen Lanxi opened his mouth in time. "Why did you marry Beichen six years ago?" Jane Mo simply gave up and calmly replied, "I met the right person at the right time, so I married!" "Really?" CEN Lanxi immediately slid a touch of irony across the fundus of his eyes. Jane Mo was indifferent to him and didn''t explain. "How did I hear... Some people abandon their first love because of money?" CEN Lanxi''s tone is not good. Jian Mo has experienced the wind and rain in the end. In addition, she already knew that this meal was a "Hongmen banquet" before adding it. She was not surprised by Cen Lanxi''s attitude. Jian Mo knows that Cen Lanxi may have known the relationship between her and Zixiao before she came, and there is no argument. "There''s nothing wrong with that." Jian Mo said slowly, "it''s just that men like ah Chen make it easy for women to fall." "That''s..." Cen Lanxi should be proud, but in a flash, his face became cold and sarcastic, "a rich and handsome man is easy for women to fall." Jane Mo was silent. She had nothing to say about Cen Lanxi''s "accusation". After all, I married Gu Beichen for money And people are from the appearance Association, which is very important at first sight... Obviously, Gu Beichen''s appearance and momentum are also the first step to capture her. "Why, don''t you refute?" Jane Mo smiled, very light. "Mrs. Gu expects me to retort?" CEN Lanxi frowned slightly and found that the woman was not simple. She seemed to bear it, but actually pushed all the questions back to her... Finally, no matter what answer she didn''t answer, she was talking to herself. Jane Mo''s beautiful face was so calm, but her beautiful short hair showed some awe inspiring confidence. CEN Lanxi took a sip of red wine, then picked up the tail of her eyebrow and said slowly, "I asked you to come today. I think you should know very well..." after a pause, she put down her glass and said, "I hope you leave Beichen." Jane Mo suddenly thought in her heart: will every rich family story end under the "Persuasion" of rich family parents? "Sorry, you can ask me to do a lot of things..." Jian Mo''s voice is firm and her bright eyes are more serious, "but I can''t do it without Beichen." "How much do you want?" CEN Lanxi said coldly, "or, I''ll give you a check and you fill it out yourself?" Jian Mo really wants to tell Cen Lanxi that it''s too bloody to dump the check Of course, this is not strong enough! She thought she should say to Cen Lanxi that your son''s property is now in my name, and now I am raising your son Of course, Jane Mo didn''t say, so she had to be cool by herself. "I don''t want anything..." Jane Mo chuckled and her voice was calm. "I just want ah Chen!" "Jane Mo, it''s not good to tear your face!" CEN Lanxi lost her face. Jane Mo''s innocent eyes, she didn''t tear them, okay? "Just say, what do you want?" CEN Lanxi hissed coldly and said disdainfully, "just like your mother in those days, be happy... Tell me what you want!" Jane Mo frowned at the moment. How did it come to her mother? "Don''t you know?" CEN Lanxi sneered, "your mother seduced a man and wanted to join a rich family... What did she say for love and finally left with a check?" "Mrs. Gu, I don''t think it''s appropriate to involve my mother while talking about my affairs!" Jane Mo''s tone was a little bad. "Don''t you think it''s impolite?" "If you do, are you afraid to tell others?" CEN Lanxi hissed lightly. Jane Mozhe her lower lip, which means that Gu Beichen''s mother is sitting opposite, otherwise "Why, don''t you believe it?" CEN Lanxi didn''t seem to see Jian Mo''s anger. "When she climbed into a man''s bed to marry a rich family..." "Shut up!" Jane Mo got up angrily, "no matter what my mother is like, it has nothing to do with you!" She tried to restrain her rising anger, took a deep breath, but her hand was pinched involuntarily. "Tut Tut, are you trying to hit me?" CEN Lanxi suddenly sneered, "the daughter of cheap life is really a disgrace!" "If I do it, you will be noble?" Jian Mo can allow Cen Lanxi to scold her, but she can''t be allowed to scold her mother or even insult her mother, "my mother is a bitch, how about you?" "You call me a bitch?" CEN Lanxi immediately stared and suddenly stood up. Because Cen Lanxi''s voice was too sharp, people in the restaurant projected their eyes Jane Mo sneered, "I didn''t say that. That''s what you said!" She leaned over and grabbed the bag. "Excuse me!" She turned around and was about to leave, but when she saw Gu Beichen standing not far away, Jane Mo sneered Dog blood! What fucking dog blood! Chapter 313 Jane Mo didn''t say anything, just walked out with big steps Even, when passing by Gu Beichen, her steps didn''t stop at all. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, turned slowly and looked at Jane Mo, who had pushed open the glass door and walked out. He didn''t chase. He just watched Jane Mo get into the car through the glass window, and then drove away The restaurant was filled with a treacherous atmosphere. It felt like pressing a stone on everyone''s heart, making people unable to breathe. CEN Lanxi slipped across the fundus of his eyes, and then sat down angrily, as if he was very angry. Gu Beichen took a step forward and sat down in front of Jian mo. "Mom asked me over... Just to see you quarrel?" Gu Beichen said softly, deliberately biting the word "quarrel" very hard. "Do you think I''ll quarrel with her?" CEN Lanxi''s breath was a little unstable. "Is this the wife you''re looking for? I''ll ask you two out for dinner. What''s the end?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips scratched a faint smile, which was too light and showed an incomprehensible emotion. "They all say that the relationship between mother-in-law and daughter-in-law is not easy to get along with... As the dual identity of son and husband sandwiched in the middle, it seems that I still need to learn a lot." CEN Lanxi frowned slightly, as if surprised that Gu Beichen would say so. "You just didn''t hear that. She scolded me..." Cen Lanxi said with gnashing teeth, "scold me, bitch?" "I know Jane Mo''s temperament..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "First of all, even if she was angry, she wouldn''t say that about you... Because you are not only an elder, but also my mother! Second... For no reason, she was so angry, obviously impossible." "Beichen, what do you mean?" CEN Lanxi immediately stared, "do you mean I embarrassed her?" "Mom..." Gu Beichen shouted softly, "don''t do these meaningless things again. I can''t leave her." "Even if she is disrespectful to me, it doesn''t matter if she is you?" "I said... If you can''t live in peace, turn a blind eye." Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep. "My life with Mo''er doesn''t need anyone''s blessing... I just need her to accompany me to my old age!" CEN Lanxi''s eyes widened. She never thought that her son would treat her like this for a woman! Even if he saw the scene just now, he chose to believe the woman without asking the reason The breath was getting a little sluggish, and Cen Lanxi''s hand clenched. Gu Beichen looked at Cen Lanxi with deep eyes and light lips. "In that case, I chose to stay because you are my mother!" After a pause, his eyes became deep. "But, mom... Do you know?" CEN Lanxi looked at Gu Beichen and didn''t speak. Gu Beichen laughed at himself, "because I stay, how sad should Mo''er be now?" "Because she''s sad, don''t you care about my mother?" CEN Lanxi asked sharply. Gu Beichen sighed and just then said, "just force me..." Then he got up and called Gu Moyuan as he walked out. At the same time, he ordered the waiter to take care of him. "Yes, Chen Shao!" The waiter answered. CEN Lanxi didn''t expect Gu Beichen to leave like this. She fanned her eyes and felt that her behavior tonight was particularly stupid Her son was bewitched by Jane Mo, and he was so fascinated that he didn''t even know who he was. Gu Beichen pushed the door and went out. Before he reached the car, a figure appeared on one side. "Luo Xiaoning, can''t you see him here?" "I''ll dig the news!" Luo Xiaomi smiled, "unexpectedly, I saw the confrontation between the rich family''s mother-in-law and daughter-in-law, and my little uncle is willing to become sandwich biscuits..." Gu Beichen coldly copied his pocket with both hands and looked at Luo Xiaomi with a slight depth of vision. Luo Xiaomi was immediately looked at, and his heart was fluffy. He glanced at his mouth, "don''t look at me. I just arrived and saw the last scene..." Then she suddenly widened her eyes curiously, grabbed Gu Beichen''s sleeve and asked, "little uncle, who do you think is in charge and who is wrong in this fight today?" "I think... It is said that it will be difficult for some people to interview the Minister of a department of the emperor!" Gu Beichen spoke coldly. As soon as Luo Xiaomi heard this, he immediately released Gu Beichen, "just think I''ve never appeared today..." With that, Luo Xiaomi has gone away. Are you kidding? It''s about performance. She finally made an exclusive interview... I''ll stop when I come back. But Luo Xiaomi looked back and was still looking at her Gu Beichen, but he was happy She likes this little aunt. She has to make an interview sometime! Well... It''s best when my little aunt doesn''t know her! Gu Beichen got on the bus and dialed Jian Mo''s number first "Hello, the number you dialed cannot be connected for the time being. Please redial later! If you need to leave a message, please leave a message after the ''drop'' tone." Gu Beichen''s eyes became deep. Just after the "drop" sound came from his mobile phone, he opened his mouth: "Mo''er, meet and talk, okay?" When I texted him before... What kind of mood did she use to tell him that she had an appointment in the evening? She came to see her mother, but she didn''t want him to know... She didn''t want him to be embarrassed, he knew! But now? It''s not him, but Mo''er Gu Beichen first called Banshan villa and told aunt Luo to call him back if Jian Mo went back... Then he drove and found it in Los Angeles. This situation is like going back to four years ago She was sad. She hoped that he would find her and gave him an hour. But at that time, he could judge according to her environment... Today, it''s like looking for a needle in a haystack. The night wind slid into the car through the open window and gently raised Jane Mo''s hair. She drove aimlessly with her mouth tightly closed to prevent her anger from leaking out Suddenly, Jane Mo pulled over to the side of the road Slightly tilt your head and look at the subway station with people coming and going. Your line of sight moves slowly and falls in front of you Her hair seems to be in a hurry, and there is a long circle around her from time to time. Jane Mo involuntarily hooked up at the corner of her mouth. Unconsciously, she drove here? That one hour of waiting, one hour of love... The place where her heart wants to stop completely falls. "Didi -" When the whistle came, Jane Mo quickly restrained her mind and subconsciously thought she blocked others'' looking back When seeing the driver get out of the car, Jian Mo''s eyes gradually filled with a thin layer of water mist Chapter 314 Gu Beichen looked at the car in front of him. While his thin lips were smiling, there was a touch of relaxation in the depths of the ink pupil. Striding forward, he opened the driver''s door, "get off!" "Why?" Jane Mo asked angrily, but the corners of her mouth were smiling. Gu Beichen leaned in and put out the fire while loosening Jian Mo''s seat belt Took the bag put in the co pilot''s bag and took Jian Mo out of the car. "You can''t park here for a long time!" Jane Mo said quickly. "Let''s drag it away..." Gu Beichen''s cold face didn''t matter at all. Jian Mo chuckled, "local tyrant!" Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo and his eyes were deep. Then he stuffed her into Maybach''s co driver''s seat. After carefully tying her seat belt, he bypassed the front of the car and went to the driver''s seat. Maybach crossed Audi and left "Why can''t I get through?" "How did you get here?" Gu Beichen and Jian Mo asked about the exit almost at the same time. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, and then said, "you don''t get through the phone and didn''t go back, so I''ll try my luck here..." he said, slightly picking his eyebrow tail, "my wife is always easy to get lost, I have to get used to looking for her." Jane Mo wrinkled her nose and muttered, "I''ve just arrived here..." "I wish I could just find you!" Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo and asked in a low voice, "how can I get through?" Jane Mo was stunned, took out the mobile phone in her bag, saw that it was automatically turned off, and said, "there''s no electricity!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and sighed slightly. He was angry, but he didn''t have the heart to blame the little woman. "I didn''t read the text message I gave you at that time, did I?" Gu Beichen asked. If he saw it, he would know he would go to dinner with his mother... But when she saw him at that time, she was obviously surprised. "No..." Jane Mo thought of Cen Lanxi, and her heart was stuffy. "What do you want to tell me?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo skimmed her mouth, "no..." "Mo''er!" Gu Beichen frowned. Jane Mo shrugged. "It''s really not... You don''t ask me why I quarrel with your mother. What else can I ask you?" She raised her mouth slightly, "you trust me, and I trust you!" Gu Beichen''s heart was instantly filled with this woman... She was so invisible that she kept eating into his heart. How could he put it down? "Where are we going?" Jane Mo found that it was not the way back to the villa, so she couldn''t help asking. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, "aren''t you so angry that you haven''t eaten yet?" Jane Mo immediately grinned, lifted her body slightly, and kissed Gu Beichen on the cheek Finally, the car stopped at Wangjiang building and sat on the terrace on the second floor, eating and blowing the wind. It was very pleasant to see the scenery of the Los Angeles River. However, during the meal, Jian Mo found Gu Beichen very busy! The specific performance is that the mobile phone keeps shaking. He keeps sending text messages "If you''re busy, you''ll be busy. I''ll take a big car back after eating." Jane Mo said and couldn''t help muttering, "just drove over together..." "It''s a little busy..." Gu Beichen saw that he Jianmo''s vision was a little deep, and his thin lips scratched a smile, "but don''t worry." "Oh..." Jane Mo answered angrily and continued to eat. At that time, Xu was too angry to see Cen Lanxi and too happy to see Gu Beichen chasing after him. His stomach was empty... Jian Mo had a good appetite and ate a lot of things. "Tut Tut, Wangjiang building is really delicious for ten years." Jane Mo sighed when she was full. Gu Beichen looked at her without affectation, and the smile on the corners of his mouth deepened a little, "eat so full... Go for a walk?" "Aren''t you busy?" Jane froth fanned her eyelashes. "There''s still time to walk with you..." Gu Beichen summoned the waiter to settle the account, and then led Jian Mo''s hand down the Wangjiang building. Along the way, someone whispered and looked at the two people. He didn''t know what he was talking about? The relationship between the two people has been made public now. No matter whether the things by Yujing lake have anything to do with the emperor or not, and no matter what the outside world says, the two people just firmly believe in each other and don''t care about the eyes of others "When I stood by the Seine river that time, I was thinking that in the past, you were afraid of exposing your relationship with me. It was a luxury for us to join hands on the Bank of the Los Angeles River..." Gu Beichen said faintly. "What do you mean I''m afraid of exposure?" Jian Mo was dissatisfied. "It''s as if you wanted to be exposed before." "Later, I thought..." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian mo. under the soft but dim night light, his eyes were deep and bottomless. Jane Mo breathed a long sigh of relief, and then said with a smile: "in the future, we have more opportunities to walk hand in hand..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered softly, and then continued to walk. After a few steps, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone vibrated. He took it out and opened the screen. It was sent by Xiao Jing: Chen Shao, I''ve played my old life... Done! Before waiting to drop his hand, Xiao Jing''s message came in again: Chen Shao, I work so hard, I should get a raise... Right? Gu Beichen''s thin lips lightly hooked, and his smile showed the evil cunning under the danger His slender fingers moved gently. Soon, he replied with a text message. Chen Shao: I have to ask the leader about the salary increase later! "I depend on..." Xiao Jing saw it and suddenly burst into foul language. "Shit, I forgot. He''s working for his wife now!" Xiao Jing replied with gnashing teeth: Chen Shao, you won! Gu Beichen took a deep look at Xiao Jing''s text message and received his mobile phone without reply "If you want to be busy, do it first..." Jane Mo frowned slightly. "Ah Chen, don''t delay the business because of me at any time." She is neither a child nor a little girl Sometimes she acts coquettish, but she is not a person who can''t understand things... The emperor is so big. Recently, Gu Beichen seems to spend a lot of time with her? Gu Beichen stopped, and the eagle''s eyes coagulated Jian Mo deeply, as if to absorb her whole person into his world Jane Mo was frozen by his sight, instinctively looked at him, and gradually... His sight overlapped with him in the air. "A little hurried..." Gu Beichen suddenly opened his mouth and raised his thin lips, "but I still hope you can forget tonight." "Huh?" Jane Mo blankly fanned her eyes. Gu Beichen leaned over slightly, kissed Jian Mo''s forehead, and said in a dull voice, "Mo''er, no matter what your mother said to you... You just need to remember that you want to spend your life with you..." He paused and looked at Jane Mo''s eyes deeper and deeper. "It''s not her or Xiaojie..." Gu Beichen opened his thin lips gently and spoke slowly, "it''s me!" Jane Mo smiled and nodded softly. She knows, so... She strengthens his feelings! Suddenly The sound of "boom" disturbed Jane Mo''s heart. At the same time, bright fireworks bloomed in the ink air. She instinctively looked up and saw a succession of fireworks blooming in the ink space Chapter 315 The sudden fireworks seem to render the ink space into the most beautiful and dreamy color, which makes everyone stop beautifully. Jane Mo tilted her head back. She didn''t know why. She suddenly remembered the night before she went to England She stood on the Los Angeles River Bridge, looking at the fireworks like this, saying goodbye to her past. At the moment, she was on the Bank of the Los Angeles River, watching fireworks to welcome her new life. Gu Beichen took something out of his pocket and released Jian Mo''s hand Jian Mo subconsciously looked down and saw Gu Beichen take a step back and kneel on one knee. In his hand is a ring, not a big diamond that dazzles people''s eyes at a glance, but a small blue diamond ring... It becomes dazzling under the fireworks. "This proposal should have been four years ago..." Gu Beichen''s low and mellow voice came. He looked up at Jian Mo slightly. The ink pupil was so deep that people couldn''t see to the end. It was as if he was connected to everything with ink space, and fireworks bloomed in his eyes. "But even if it was me, I couldn''t control the accident!" Gu Beichen said, "Mo''er, the night you signed the divorce agreement four years ago, when Zixiao went to the restaurant to find you, I went too!" Jane Mo was slightly stunned. "When I see you looking at Su Junli so tenderly and saying that you love him..." Gu Beichen laughed at himself. "I seem to have nothing else but to turn around silently..." Jane Mo''s nose is already a little sour. Too many coincidences make them miss too much time. "I was drunk and dreamed of death on the night of heaven. I want to imprison you to my side regardless of your wishes..." Gu Beichen was dragged by memory and gave a heavy fetal rest, "but in the end... I can''t bear to hurt!" "That night, I sat here alone with fireworks that I used to propose to you." Gu Beichen continued, "I think... The fireworks bloom every moment, as if mocking my arrogance!" The eyes were so red, but Jian Mo endured it to prevent the dense water mist from overflowing It turns out... He prepared the fireworks for her that night! Jane Mo kept shaking her eyelashes and wanted to tell him... That night, she was here and saw the fireworks he prepared for her. "At that moment, I thought my heart could be empty again!" Gu Beichen''s self mockery is getting heavier and heavier. Jane Mo bit her lip, but the corners of her mouth were filled with a sour smile under happiness. "Four years late, the same place, the same fireworks, the same me and you..." Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a rare nervous radian, "Mo''er, you have married me, so now... I just want to ask you, are you willing to live this life with me?" Tears fell down uncontrollably. Jane Mo sobbed and smiled, the back of her hand against her nose, and the corners of her eyes were obviously laughing, but the tears in her eyes were flowing down uncontrollably Why can this man move her so much? He is clearly a ruthless and overbearing emperor president in the eyes of the outside world. How many people have died with a pen? However, at the moment, he knelt in front of her and said that this was not a proposal, but a lifelong commitment How can she refuse such a promise? "I''d like to..." Jane Mo sniffed, laughing, crying and choking. Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a smile. That smile instantly reached the bottom of his eyes. Clearly know that this woman will not disagree. But... At the moment of asking, he was still nervous, just like an adolescent boy, for fear that she would refuse. After pulling Jian Mo''s hand, Gu Beichen took the proposal ring prepared four years ago No matter at any time, others don''t know the ring he puts around all the time... It''s almost worshipped and piously set on Jane Mo''s ring finger. He has been dreaming that this ring may one day be put on Jian Mo''s finger when we meet again And now, it has done it! Gu Beichen was so careful, as if he was afraid that his dream would be broken at this moment Not only women have dreams about their other half, but also men! At that time, when his grandfather left, he said he would stand up... He said he would try to be happy. Now, he has done it! Jane Mo looked at the ring in her hand, and then looked at Gu Beichen who stood up. "You don''t know..." she sucked her nose. "When you took me to the south to prepare a birthday party for Xiaoxiao, I envied when I saw the proposal ring hidden in the cake." "I know..." Gu Beichen''s eyes became deep, "but at that time, the person you hoped to propose was not me!" Seeing Gu Beichen''s dissatisfaction, Jian Mo couldn''t help laughing As she wiped her tears, she said, "I don''t dislike you. The diamond is small now!" The lips of Gu Beichen gently lifted into his arms "Little money fan..." Gu Beichen spoiled and said. Then, the corners of his mouth raised a smile, which filled the depths of the ink pupil and opened like fireworks, "I know to change the topic!" "Where do I have?" Jane Mo hummed and wiped her tears on Gu Beichen''s clothes. Gu Beichen''s eyes become deep... At this moment, happiness makes people forget everything, but I don''t know why, but his heart is filled with anxiety. And such uneasiness, for no reason... It''s like happiness comes too fast, he''s afraid he can''t catch it! "Thank you, husband..." Jane Mo raised her head slightly. At the moment Gu Beichen lowered her eyes, she tiptoed slightly, grabbed his sleeve, and the lip with salty tears... Fell on the thin lip. The fireworks behind are still in bloom, blooming in the ink sky one after another Under the fireworks, the two people who are more determined to each other are inseparable from each other. "Boom - Ka!" Fireworks seem to be endless. After the burst sound one after another, there are flowers dyed with happiness blooming in the ink sky However, under the same ink space, some people are happy, some people look forward to happiness... Some people wait for happiness. Others... Want to kill happiness! Shi Shaoqin sat in the car and his eyes fell on the two people who kissed each other Because of the distance, he didn''t see clearly, but at the moment of the fireworks, he knew... The people below were Gu Beichen and Jian mo. "Qin Shao?" Morson asked. "How beautiful..." Shi Shaoqin sighed, but he didn''t know whether it was fireworks or the two people immersed in happiness. Morson looked sideways at the two people kissing by the river. At the right time, a voice came from the back seat "It''s so beautiful..." Shi Shaoqin gradually drew a penetrating smile from the corners of his mouth, and the cold voice slowly overflowed the beautiful lips, "it makes people want to destroy themselves!" Mosen swallowed it secretly and felt that the original peaceful atmosphere in the car was instantly replaced by cold Chapter 316 Jane Joong sat in the hanging garden of the Los Angeles Hotel and had dinner. People who didn''t know him thought he was an elegant gentleman at first. The mobile phone vibrated on one side. After Jian Heng looked at it, he immediately answered the phone: "second uncle!" "How are things today?" Gu muhuai took a golf club, aimed at it indoors, and while speaking, he hit out. The small white ball turned a few circles at the hole and fell into the hole. He just threw the club to the people on the side. "Gu Beichen seemed to know I would go..." Jane truss frowned slightly. Gu muhuai smiled, took the towel handed over by the servant, wiped his hand, drank a cup of tea, and then said, "Beichen was able to take the emperor away from me... It''s not luck that he can expand the emperor so much in recent years." Jian Heng sighed to, "second uncle, is it really good to expose in front of him so early?" "Instead of asking him to check you, it''s better to stand in front of him..." Gu mohuai said, his eyes deep. "It''s a pity that Jane Mo''s move." Jane didn''t speak "If you hadn''t threatened her like that, it would still be useful now." Gu mohuai sighed, "unexpectedly... Beichen still has the ability to like someone now." "What does second uncle mean?" Jane truss asked with a slight frown. Gu muhuai smiled. "Don''t ask what you shouldn''t know... You just need to hold JK in your hand step by step." "I understand this..." Jane truss said coldly, with a touch of hate in her eyes. It''s a kind of bitterness. Even if you give everything, you should let the person who let him taste the pain feel it! After Gu mohuai explained two more words to Jian truss, he hung up the phone He tore off the Bluetooth headset and threw it casually on the table. Then he looked at the man standing by and said, "Jing wolf, contact the young master of xiamo palace!" "Yes!" The Jing wolf answered respectfully. Gu mohuai experienced years of precipitation in his eyes, gradually revealing Yin Li. He took a cold puff from the corner of his mouth and said calmly, "after all these years... It''s time to remind him that the past... Can''t really pass!" La, Paradise night. Tang Yu watched Chu Zixiao drink one cup after another, frowned slightly and sighed deeply. Han Zhenzhen suddenly came over and sat down beside Chu Zixiao. "If you want to drink, I''ll accompany you!" Then she filled herself with wine. "Really, will you stop making fun?" Tang Yu immediately felt a headache, "you two have a court to open tomorrow... You''re full of wine, like what?" Han Zhenzhen looked at Tang Yu and didn''t speak. After touching Chu Zixiao, he looked up and drank the wine Lin Fan sighed and shook his head helplessly: "ask what love is in the world? Teach people life and death..." "Don''t make trouble!" Tang Yu interrupted Lin Fan''s words, and then looked at Chu Zixiao with a heavy heart. "Ah Yu, ah Xiao, this is not the way..." Lin Fan twisted his eyebrows. "Then, can''t you think of a way?" "What do you think?" Hum, uncle Tang Yumo can go to Leng Xiaomo now Lin Fan immediately stopped talking, because Chu Zixiao''s eyes projected at the moment could kill! "He Gu Beichen robbed my girlfriend. Is that the regular outline of ethics?" Chu Zixiao''s voice was a little dull because he drank too much wine. Such a rhetorical question immediately made Tang Yu and Lin Fan speechless. When Gu Beichen and Jian Mo got married, Jian Mo didn''t even go to bed with Chu Zixiao But now, Jian Mo has Gu Beichen''s child, Chu Zixiao''s cousin... These two are completely different things! Of course, no one will say this at the moment Chu Zixiao and Han Zhenzhen continued to drink, also for the sake of feelings, but unfortunately, no one can see the people around them, only the one who doesn''t belong to them. "Let them drink..." Lin Fan sighed softly, "get them back one by one later!" Tang Yu looked at Lin Fan and didn''t speak... At this moment, he can only let them drink. The atmosphere of heaven at night is dignified, but the riverside of Los Angeles is warm. From time to time, Jian Mo raised her hand and looked at the ring on her ring finger. Her smile was about to exude honey. She also said with affectation: "I heard that a rich businessman recently photographed two big diamonds... A pink diamond and a blue diamond! Tut Tut, I guess I don''t have one tenth of them!" "Didn''t you get a 1111g diamond two days ago? Or... I bought it for you to wear?" Gu Beichen said with a laugh. Jane Mo secretly grinned and proudly raised her eyebrows: "do you have money?" "..." Gu Beichen was stunned, and then said seriously, "no!" "What do you buy?" Jane Mo continued to chuckle and look at the ring on her hand. "Or... Hue?" Gu Beichen is light. "No..." "Why?" Gu Beichen asked with a smile. Jian Mo stretched out his hand, hooked Gu Beichen''s chin with his fingers, and said with a look of the king of the mountain: "you are also mine... You know?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, "are you flirting with me?" "Yes!" After Jane Mo generously admitted it, she went to see her ring with joy. Gu Beichen looked at her happy appearance, and the smile around her mouth became deep If he had known that proposing would make her so happy, he should have done it earlier. "Husband..." Jane moru circled Gu Beichen''s arm at the corner of her mouth. "You said... Will you overdraw too fast?" "Overdraft?" Gu Beichen lightly eh, and then the corners of his mouth hooked a dangerous smile, "it''s all right. My physical strength has always recovered faster." Jane Mo was stunned first, and then she understood what he said. Suddenly, her face was stained with crimson, "obscene!" "Did I say anything?" Gu Beichen was serious and innocent, "or say..." the bottom of his deep eyes was gradually hot and ambiguous, "what are you thinking?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth. Why does this man always dig holes for her? Too much! Seeing Jian Mo angry, Gu Beichen hugged her and said, "feelings are like wine. The more you hide, the more mellow... How can you overdraw?" Jane Mo''s heart moved, smiled and said, "I actually want to hear your sweet words..." The words fell, seeing Gu Beichen''s eyes become deep, she lay on his shoulder and continued to look at the ring on her finger But because the surrounding light was not particularly bright, from beginning to end, Jane didn''t notice what was special about the ring. Gu Beichen''s sight also fell on the ring. There was a thought-provoking slip in the depths of the eagle''s eyes, "Mo''er..." "Huh?" Jane Mo responded softly. "No matter at any time," Gu Beichen''s voice is a little dignified, "don''t lose this ring." Jane Mo didn''t recognize the hidden meaning in Gu Beichen''s tone because she was happy. She just answered But in the end, when she knew what secret was hidden in the ring, she used too much sadness to pay tribute! Chapter 317 As long as Gu Beichen and Jian mo were bored by the river, Shi Shaoqin''s car stopped on the roadside. Morson looked at the man in the back seat several times from the rearview mirror. Even though he had been with Qin Shao, he had never understood this man Or, in this world, no one can understand him! Shi Shaoqin kept leaning his head to look at the position by the river. There was no expression on his handsome face, but a faint smile on the corners of his mouth. "Morson!" Shi Shaoqin suddenly opened his mouth. "Qin Shao?" Morson answered quickly. Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes and smiled at the bottom of his eyes. However, his words were cold, "buy the emperor''s loose shares outside..." Destroy what Chen cares about one by one... He wants to see if Chen''s will is still the same as in those years? Shi Shaoqin looked deeper and deeper, and the narrow space in the car was filled with a cold breath. At the right time, there was a slight sound from the mobile phone. Shi Shaoqin restrained his mind, picked up the mobile phone, looked at it, and then picked it up Listening to the report from the people inside, Shi Shaoqin''s eyes gathered slightly and said indifferently, "reply to Gu mohuai... His affairs will not be answered by the Mo palace in the future!" After a slight meal, he continued, "the Mo palace will not intervene in what he wants to do." Morson looked at Shi Shaoqin again from the rearview mirror and was slightly stunned at his words Is Qin Shao really angry now? The next day, Jane Mo was smiling when she went to work. Even when she made a paper mold, she was very handy. She has always been good at drawing design drawings, but she is always short of paper molds. But today, I don''t know if it''s because she''s been happy all night. Even Andy was stunned by the paper molds she made. "Sister mo..." Mu Xiaoran was the first to find a ring on Jane Mo''s finger. "This ring is from President Gu?" When she came back, Jane Mo called Gu Beichen "President Gu". Later, she was full of jokes. She still shouted like this in front of others, and there was no change in her mobile phone... Now when people around her call Gu Beichen, they all learn from her. Jane Mo stretched out her hand, raised her eyebrows and nodded with a smile. "Mr Gu is too stingy, isn''t he?" Mu Xiaoran glanced, "even if you don''t give pigeon eggs, how can you get five carats? These are two carats at most..." Jane Mo chuckled. "The diamond is not in size, but in who sent it..." she raised her eyebrows. "When the little girl meets the person she likes, she will know." Mu Xiaoran looked at Jian mo. when she said this, her whole body exuded an unspeakable charm It''s different from what I saw when I was in the hospital four years ago. At that time, her mother had just died, and she seemed to have been evacuated... And now all her soul is injected back into her! That''s nice "What''s the matter?" Jian Mo found that mu Xiaoran looked at her strangely. "Nothing... I just feel that sister Mo is enviable for her happiness at the moment." Mu Xiaoran said hurriedly. "Must!" While Jian Mo picked up his lips and said, he took the design drawing drawn by mu Xiaoran and began to see it. Mu Xiaoran listened to Jian Mo talking about her shortcomings and her advantages. While responding, he lost his mind The luckiest thing in my life was to meet a man named "Jian Mo". Because of her, my sister survived. Also because of her... She embarked on the road of architectural design. "Xiao ran?" Jane Mo frowned slightly, "are you listening?" "Yes..." Mu Xiaoran smiled. "I''ll pay attention to the pull wire next time!" "Yes." Jian Mo answered and handed the design drawing to Mu Xiaoran. "After changing it again, she can give it to Sun Ke. She will deal with the follow-up problems." "OK..." Mu Xiaoran answered, "sister Mo, you will go hiking tomorrow?" She was turning around and suddenly asked again. Jane Mo nodded. She won''t miss the group activities... Besides, she can''t come back to the milk bag camping tomorrow. It''s going to be afternoon. Mu Xiaoran was very happy, "sister Mo, I''ll bring you the beef jerky made by my sister tomorrow. It''s very delicious. You''ll like it..." "Light belt, my estimation, you will be besieged!" Jane Mo''s kind reminder. Mu Xiaoran laughed, "I''ll bring more... Sister Mo, I''ll fix the map first." Then she went out of the office happily. Jian Mo always felt that mu Xiaoran seemed a little inexplicably excited today and didn''t think much. She continued to make her own paper mold It hasn''t been done yet. The beautiful ring of the mobile phone rings. Jane Mo looked at the call and picked it up... Before she spoke, Li Xiaoyue''s voice came. "Girl, are you free tonight?" Jane Mo''s mouth closed slowly. Li Xiaoyue''s low pressure voice made her frown, "yes!" "Let''s have dinner together?" "OK..." Jane Mo asked, "where are you going?" "Still go to Nanxiang building?" "Well, good!" Jane Mo hung up the phone after answering the voice, but because Li Xiaoyue''s voice was different from ordinary, her eyes were stained with a heavy. Jane Mo sent a text message to Gu Beichen, saying that she would have dinner with Li Xiaoyue in the evening Gu Beichen replied quickly: after eating, I''ll pick you up, huh? Jane Mo pursed her lips and answered Box of Nanxiang building. Li Xiaoyue looked at the thing in her hand and wondered whether to show Jane Mo or not. If it is true, the reversal of the plot is too surprising "Tut Tut, don''t let go of the case?" Jane Mo''s voice came with the sound of opening the door, with a smile. Li Xiaoyue put the information away in her bag in a panic, then said with a smile: "there''s no way. We don''t have high wealth and handsome bracts, so we can only work hard by ourselves..." "Tut Tut, the smell of jealousy is so heavy..." Jane Mo picked her eyebrows and sat down opposite. By the way, she raised her fingers. "Let you see this. You can''t hit the wall angrily?" Li Xiaoyue''s eyes lit up when she saw the ring on Jian Mo''s finger. "Gu Beichen proposed to you?" Four years ago, the Oolong divorced. Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue also said that now when they see this ring, they naturally know what it means Jane Mo nodded and told her about seeing Cen Lanxi last night and her subsequent proposal. Li Xiaoyue listened, looked at the smile and happiness on Jian Mo''s face, and became more and more tangled about whether to give her that thing "What''s wrong with you today?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and joked, "isn''t it endocrine disorder?" "Tut Tut, a woman with a man will bully a single Wang..." Li Xiaoyue rolled her eyes. "I''ll compete with you again after my sister also finds a good looking woman." "Mo Shaochen?" Jian Mo smiled and asked, "Yan Hao, I admit it. But the instrument is thick... Have you tried?" "..." Li Xiaoyue was speechless. Jane Mo picked her eyebrows and accepted the joking attitude. She asked honestly, "come on, why are you asking me out so solemnly today?" Chapter 318 "There are too many cases in hand recently. It''s annoying." Li Xiaoyue said casually, "then think of you abusing me, let me rekindle my fighting spirit and get rid of the male god!" "Not afraid to deal with the male nerve?" Jane Mo said venomously. "Wipe, why can''t Mo Shaochen pull away from the male nerve?" Li Xiaoyue said quickly. "Tut Tut, some people seem to have been peeping for a long time..." Jane Mo shook her head, "Xiaoyue, is this from worship to secret love?" Li Xiaoyue was naturally open-minded. Seeing that Jian Mo was biting, she simply admitted, "yes, I just like him..." "Very good." Jian Mo smiled, "you''ve got Mo Shaochen, and we''ll be promoted from best friend to relative... Well, remember to call me cousin later!" "Get out!" Li Xiaoyue stared with a smile, but then drooped her shoulders in self mockery, "I''ve had such a thing... I don''t deserve him!" She took a deep breath. "In fact, I just entertain myself." Jane Mo suddenly felt heavy. She leaned over and held Li Xiaoyue''s hand. "That thing is over. We won''t mention it, huh?" Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo for a while. Finally, her eyes were filled with tears and asked seriously, "that girl... If some past things happened to you, would you feel past?" "Yes!" Jane Mo nodded, "I don''t want my life to keep turning back... I want to move forward!" Looking at Jian Mo''s firmness, Li Xiaoyue''s nose was sour Jane Mo used to be cold and proud, but now she is still proud, but she is full of hope for life This is a good thing, but not everyone can afford this transformation process. One meal, the two people ate the same laughter as usual, and talked about other people''s gossip from time to time, until Gu Beichen called Jian Mo to pick her up... The two didn''t break up. Li Xiaoyue drove back to the noodle stall with Mo Shaochen that night. She subconsciously stopped the car, asked for a bowl of noodles and sat down at the table in the corner. The face was not on, and suddenly the light was blocked. Li Xiaoyue looked up and stared in surprise when she saw that it was mo Shaochen. "Just nearby, I came here..." Mo Shaochen opened his mouth calmly and looked calm. "I didn''t expect you to be there." Li Xiaoyue smiled at the corners of her mouth and was stunned. Instead, she looked calm. As they were both criminal defense lawyers, they talked about the recent case of Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao Because Mo Shaochen''s party had a little accident, the last scheduled court session was moved to next week. As long as Li Xiaoyue has nothing on her hands, she will read the confrontation book of the two people. For their lawyers, seeing the confrontation between two lawyers with equal technical means can learn a lot. "Well..." Li Xiaoyue asked with her lower lip, "I have a personal question. I don''t know it''s inconvenient for you to answer?" "Huh?" Mo Shaochen is light. He looks as usual. "Do you know Gu Beichen''s parents in the past?" Li Xiaoyue tangled and asked after all. Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue with deep eyes and looked at her sharply, "do you want to ask what happened between Jian Mo''s parents and Beichen''s parents?" He asked, but still sure. Li Xiaoyue twitched at the corners of her mouth. Unexpectedly, Mo Shaochen''s eyes were so sharp... Since she said it, she could only harden her head and nod. "Can you tell me how you know?" Asked Mo Shaochen. "I took a case... The party was working under Gu Beichen''s father, and..." Li Xiaoyue had a heavy heart, "and Aunt Jane are colleagues!" Mo Shaochen frowned slightly. He didn''t expect that things would happen, "I don''t know how much you know... I can only tell you that we are their onlookers. These things shouldn''t be said by us!" "I haven''t said to Mo Mo yet..." Li Xiaoyue was heavy hearted. She didn''t know why. She thought it was true. So... Was it possible that Aunt Jane really intervened in Gu Beichen''s parents'' feelings? Seeing Li Xiaoyue''s worry, Mo Shaochen''s voice is still calm and indifferent, just like every time he is in court, "it''s not easy to hide a secret, but what''s more difficult is... Watching things develop without saying it." "But lawyers are born to hide a lot of secrets!" Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen suspiciously and felt that he had something to say. However, Mo Shaochen didn''t say any more. He just ate noodles calmly, as if... The conversation just now was just a fantasy of Li Xiaoyue. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo into the villa and felt a dignified atmosphere in the air. "Chen Shao," aunt Luo said when she saw them coming back, "the master is coming." Gu Beichen didn''t change his face. He just pulled Jian Mo''s hand into the villa. Seeing Gu Moyuan sitting on the sofa reading the newspaper, he still shouted, "Dad!" Jane Mo was a little embarrassed. Looking at Gu Moyuan, she didn''t know how to shout CEN Lanxi warned her yesterday, as if it was inappropriate to shout "Dad". However, it seems inappropriate to call Mr. Gu Finally, Jian Mo could only smile politely at Gu Moyuan. Gu Chen said hello to me when he had something to do with Bei mo "If it''s about Mo''er, there''s no need to talk about it!" Gu Beichen said directly. Gu Moyuan frowned slightly. He didn''t expect him to say so. He was still in front of Jane mo. Jane was a little embarrassed, but Gu Beichen pinched her hand. She looked at him and felt a little relieved. "About your second uncle..." Gu Moyuan said with some dignity. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and there was a flash of resistance at the bottom of his eyes "You go up and wash first, huh?" Gu Beichen tilted his head and looked at Jian Mo gently. Jian Mo nodded, then politely motioned to Gu Moyuan with a smile, and then turned to go upstairs... However, at the corner of the second floor, she subconsciously looked downstairs and always felt strange. Does ah Chen''s father know... His second uncle framed him four years ago and almost "lured him"? Until Jian Mo went upstairs, Gu Moyuan said faintly, "go out with me..." "Good!" Gu Beichen answered. The night outside was just right, and the crescent moon fainted and dyed a faint light in the ink air, especially soft. The villa in the middle of the mountain is very big. Gu Beichen and Gu Moyuan walk along the small gravel road without any trouble. The sound of footsteps becomes particularly heavy in silence. "Yesterday your mother went to find Jane Mo, I don''t know!" Gu Moyuan was the first to speak. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly and understood. Gu Moyuan glanced at Gu Beichen, then stopped, "your second uncle will come back next week..." paused, and he continued, "your grandmother is going to celebrate her birthday." Gu Beichen slightly hooked his thin lips, "good excuse!" He said something lukewarm. "Beichen," Gu Moyuan''s voice was a little dignified, "I... Heard about you back then!" Gu Beichen suddenly looked at Gu Moyuan with a cold eagle''s eyes. His cold, carved face was covered with haze. He looked at Gu Moyuan fiercely, as if he wasn''t looking at his father. "What have you heard?" Chapter 319 Looking at Gu Beichen''s suddenly changed face, Gu Moyuan frowned slightly and looked a little dignified, "I didn''t expect your second uncle to treat you like that." Gu Beichen''s face became worse and worse, and even the cold air that filled his body froze the summer night. "Beichen..." "You''re here to talk to me about this?" Gu Beichen interrupted Gu Moyuan, "if so, I don''t think it''s necessary!" His voice was a little slow, but it was gloomy, "after all... So many years in the past!" Gu Moyuan looked at his son and didn''t know why. He always felt something was wrong With a deep sigh, Gu Moyuan said in the end, "I took your mother away five years ago. Your second uncle framed you in that way. I don''t know... Indeed, there''s no need to talk about it for more than four years." Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep, and there was a trace of complex doubt in Gu Moyuan''s sight As if... He was too nervous! How could dad hear about what happened after he was kidnapped? Gu Beichen took a step forward, and the eagle''s eyes were calm, so that people couldn''t feel any of his emotions. Gu Moyuan looked at Gu Beichen''s tall but proud back and felt a little sad... His son was not like this before. He is sunny and full of hope for life... He is warm and moist, and there is always a faint smile on his mouth, like a spring breeze. But now "Beichen, do you really love Jane Mo?" Gu Moyuan asked. Gu Beichen stopped and looked back at Gu Moyuan. His voice was calm but firm, "yes!" "If Jane Mo can make your heart come back, your father will support you..." Gu Moyuan''s eyes are full of the helplessness of his loving father. "I''ll persuade your mother." Gu Beichen looked at Gu Moyuan for a while. "Dad..." he shouted, and the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly before asking, "did you really have anything to do with Jane Mo''s mother?" Gu Moyuan''s face became a little bad. Fortunately, the light was not bright enough and covered up quickly, "no..." Gu Beichen''s eyes were sharp, and his thin lips scratched a sneer like nothing, then turned and continued to walk forward. "Beichen..." Gu Moyuan shouted again, and some wanted to talk and stopped. Gu Beichen didn''t stop. The feelings of the previous generation had nothing to do with him. What he cared about was Jian mo... That''s all! Jian Mo took a bath and came out. Gu Beichen hasn''t come back yet. He simply turned on the computer to visit the Los Angeles Forum The heat of Yujing lake has not faded, and the people who scolded her on the forum have scolded her to a new height... Jian Mo smiled as she looked, a little heartless. Suddenly, there was a ray of light at the bottom of my eyes, and soon. Jane was stunned, and then looked at the ring... Nothing different. "I was just dazzled?" Jane Mo murmured to herself, then turned her hands and wanted to find the position where the light had just been refracted. However, no matter how right, you can''t get the light "I guess I''m dazzled..." Jane Mo skimmed her mouth and simply turned off the computer and planned to read a book for a while. When Gu Beichen came back, Jian Mo had fallen asleep and the book fell sideways. Looking at Jian Mo''s sleeping appearance, Gu Beichen instantly faded the heavy violence brought in from the outside, and the taut face lines gradually slowed down Gently remove the book and inadvertently see a line of beautiful English on the title page Loveamaladywithoutacure£¡ Iloveyou¡­¡­Alwayshave£¡ Alwayswill£¡ Looking at this line of words, Gu Beichen''s sight was instantly soft Love is indeed an incurable disease. I also love you. It used to be so and will remain so in the future! Gu Beichen gently dropped a kiss on Jian Mo''s forehead, as if he had met, but it seemed as if he had not met Jane Mo some uneasy whimpered, turned over and continued to sleep. Looking at Jian Mo''s tired appearance, Gu Beichen felt a little distressed... Last night, when her son proposed to her, they needed each other so much to express their love that... He tossed her for most of the night. The sight calmly fell on Jian moru''s arm outside. The redness and swelling had disappeared, and there was only one mark Sure enough, he was too nervous. Adjust the wall lamp to a soft light, Gu Beichen went out of the bedroom to take a bath in another room... And then went to the study to deal with the unfinished business before he came back. The next day, Jane Mo was awakened by the mobile phone alarm clock. She sat up a little confused and saw Gu Beichen standing by the bed, "husband, good morning..." Jane Mo''s bleary eyes fanned her eyelashes. Seeing Gu Beichen in sportswear, she frowned slightly, "are you going to have morning transportation?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep and slowly light. Eh: "didn''t you say your department was going to climb mountains when you came back last night?" After a pause, he slightly hooked one side of his thin lip, "well, someone said he wanted to take his family!" Jane Mo found that she was easy to forget things when she woke up recently, especially these two days, as if she was dazed every time she woke up "I found that women are really weak after giving birth to children..." Jane Mo muttered and got out of bed to wash. In the past, even if Gu Beichen tossed her all night, she was still lively... Now tossing once can''t slow down for a few days. Considering some people who love each other in bed, the gathering time is 9 a.m. and meet directly at the foot of Maiya mountain, which is more suitable for mountain climbing in Los Angeles. When Gu Beichen and Jian Mo appeared in their lovers'' clothes, they screamed for a while "Sister Mo, when you and President Gu appear like this, you''re blinding our dogs," Xiang night said with a sad look, "abuse our single dogs by the way!" "Stimulate you to find a man early!" Jane Mo teased her mouth and didn''t care at all. Andy grimaced and said in broken Chinese, "it''s too sad. Why did the goddess hurt me like this?" Then he looked at Gu Beichen rudely. Gu Beichen is so indifferent, but when a pair of eagle eyes slip past Andy, there is a warning. Andy didn''t understand it at all, but continued to be depressed... He thought he could be "alone" with the goddess today! Apart from Andy''s depressed mood, the party climbed up the mountain with talking and laughing. Yu Ziyun and Luo Xiaojing made every effort to climb up "Yu Ziyun, are you a bit of a gentleman?" Luo Xiaojing finally lost. She was so angry that she forked her waist and said, "look at other people''s general manager, looking at you... All men and husbands. Why is the difference so big?" Yu Ziyun smiled with evil charm on his face. He didn''t care that everyone looked at him. Youyou said, "you said, I won''t let me go to C at night. In order to go to C, I can only fight!" Luo Xiaojing''s face turned red when she heard this, "Yu Ziyun, can''t you divide the occasion?" "There''s no need to divide the interests between husband and wife..." Yu Ziyun continued to say evil and charming. At the same time, he looked at Gu Beichen, who was not red and breathless from beginning to end. "Mr. Gu, right?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked deeply at the tired and panting Jian Mo, but he didn''t answer. His thin lips were filled with a deep smile Suddenly... Jian Mo''s face was as red as Luo Xiaojing''s! Chapter 320 "Tut Tut, sister Mo blushed!" Seize the opportunity to joke at night. "I was so tired..." Jane Mo retorted breathlessly. Suddenly, everyone laughed tacitly Everyone found a place to sit down and gasped in varying degrees. Even Yu Ziyun and Andy, who often exercise, gasped slightly... But there was one exception. "Chen Shao, are you too strong?" Da Xiong is obviously panting because he has to take care of Mo Xiaoya and doesn''t exercise very much on weekdays. Being reminded by him, everyone looked at Gu Beichen. He was calm and didn''t seem to climb the mountain at all. Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen with the same doubt. She was already dead halfway. It can be said that he pulled her up behind It''s hard to climb by yourself. You can imagine how much strength it takes to pull a person who doesn''t work hard at all. "Usually exercise more..." Gu Beichen said faintly. "Are you so busy and have time to exercise?" Xiang night looked surprised. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep. When everyone was curious, he said indifferently: "well, I''m not free during the day. I basically exercise at night..." At first, everyone didn''t react. When they reacted, they looked at Jian Mo one by one, and then held back a smile. Jane Mo glared at Gu Beichen fiercely. She didn''t expect this guy to start taking the mass line so dark. "Chen Shao is very kind to sister Mo!" Mu Xiaoran suddenly opened his mouth and smiled, "will you keep doing this to sister Mo?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered without hesitation. Mu Xiaoran fanned his eyes. "In that case, I''ll tell you a secret later!" As she said this, everyone couldn''t help looking at her. One by one, they were curious about what secrets she could have for Gu Beichen. However, everyone thought that was the little girl''s little worry. Without much thought, under the leadership of Yu Ziyun, they began the picnic on the top of the mountain. The people took out all the things in their backpacks, spread them into several stalls and began to talk about eating in the sea. From time to time, they made a few jokes. The laughter echoed. When the echo returned, everyone was even more crazy. "Playing games..." Da Xiong shouted, "come, come, come!" The crowd gathered together, the most old-fashioned but classic game... Truth adventure. "Have you ever played?" Jane Mo is very curious. Gu Beichen must have never played with such a serious person. "Yes." Gu Beichen was surprised to see Jian Mo and couldn''t help laughing. "He likes playing in the South and often drags me and Yunze together... Well, boss long doesn''t participate." Thinking of the Dragon owl, Jian Mo really can''t imagine that a person who never seems to laugh will play such a retarded game After a few rounds of playing, the bottle mouth was aligned with Jane foam. Xiang night directly skipped over to let her choose sincerity or adventure, and asked: "sister Mo, you......" she looked at Beichen with a bad heart, "what kind of man do you like before meeting chenshao?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen and thought of his black belly at that time. She couldn''t help but calm her mouth: "big money, thick tools!" "Ah?" Hearing this at night, he was immediately dissatisfied, "sister Mo, you are too perfunctory..." A few did not understand, one by one also agreed to the late words. However, the people who understood them looked at Gu Beichen with a smile Gu Beichen was so indifferent that there was not too much expression on his cold face. The crowd was disappointed and thought that Gu Beichen could really stretch! The game continues. Jian Mo takes over the stick and turns the bottle... I don''t know if it''s a coincidence, but she turns to Gu Beichen. "Gu Zong, what kind of woman did you like before you met me?" Asked Jane Mo, learning to sound late. Gu Beichen slightly pondered, gently opened his thin lips and opened his mouth calmly: "it''s big to have capacity!" Jane Mo was stunned and convulsed at the corner of her mouth "Hahaha..." Yu Ziyun and Luo Xiaojing, the couple, took the lead in smiling with great face. Then, those who understood all laughed with laughter. Only those inexperienced people didn''t understand what they said. What''s funny. "Tut Tut, Mo Mo, I think... You''d better not provoke your general manager Gu." Mo Xiaoya smiled and burst into tears, "obviously not in a paragraph!" Jane Mo really wanted to have a knife and let her commit suicide... She clearly wanted to molest Gu Beichen. Now, she''s molested in public. With the resentment of Jian Mo, everyone continued happily. I don''t know if Jane Mo made a good start. There are a lot of jokes behind Mu Xiaoran found a chance to be alone with Gu Beichen. She looked back at Jian Mo, who was talking to Mo Xiaoya and Sun Ke, and then said, "well... My sister was in poor health before, so I often appeared in the hospital." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. He didn''t know what mu Xiaoran meant by this? "Well, I was in Shuya hospital for several months more than four years ago!" "My sister has uremia and wants to change her kidney... But I have no money at home!" Mu Xiaoran pursed his lips. "The family owed a lot of money. My sister later sold her heart without our knowledge..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "Later I learned about it..." Mu Xiaoran lowered his eyes, probably because he was nervous and kept wringing his clothes. "I secretly took the check my sister got, and then... Found the matching kidney source, so... My sister can live, and naturally, my heart doesn''t need to be sold..." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but listened quietly... Although, from mu Xiaoran''s words, he had guessed the future. "I''m happy, because my sister doesn''t have to die..." Mu Xiaoran said, "but I really didn''t expect another person to leave!" "Later, my sister was discharged from the hospital. The man who bought the heart blessed her sister when he met his parents..." Mu Xiaoran was sad. "She said that the money could be paid back slowly, but later she didn''t ask for money." "I really didn''t know her mother was waiting for a miracle..." Mu Xiaoran bit his lip. "I didn''t know until I sneaked back to the hospital." Speaking of this, mu Xiaoran''s eyes were already red. "I saw her desperate in front of the operating room and watched her faint. At that time, I didn''t dare to go out..." she tried to bear it. She looked up at Gu Beichen and her eyes were full of guilt. Gu Beichen''s heart became heavy. That time... Should be the time when Mo''er and he asked for two million? She spoke to him in such a humble mood and flattered him Gu Beichen felt a pain in his heart for a while, as if he had been stabbed by a needle. "Sister Mo is really strong. She is the strongest and most beautiful woman I have ever seen..." Mu Xiaoran pursed his lips, "so please always love sister Mo, she is really good..." Chapter 321 Gu Beichen didn''t know there was such an episode. He just knew that Jian Mo took the money and later asked Xiao Jing to set up a special fund account and find the source of the heart However, in the end, he didn''t care enough, so even when her mother died, it was not him who accompanied her. This is Gu Beichen''s regret and guilt. "I will love her like life..." Gu Beichen glanced at her, mu Xiaoran. "Thank you for helping her find out the traitor secretly." Mu Xiaoran''s pupils dilated. "Do you know?" "In fact, I''m curious. Aren''t you afraid of others doubting you?" Gu Beichen stared slightly. "Not afraid..." Mu Xiaoran shook his head, "because I won''t hurt the person who helped me invisibly, so I''m not afraid!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips scratched a smile, and the eagle''s eyes became deep. "Stay with her and you''ll learn more..." he said nothing more and turned to the crowd. Mu Xiaoran looked back at Gu Beichen, as if... At this moment, she suddenly understood why sister Mo could trust this man so firmly after the news by Yujing lake. After laughing for a while, everyone is ready to go down the mountain Yu Ziyun likes to take people from the design department to climb mountains or take activities once a month. First, they have entered everyone''s feelings, and second, they can touch the design inspiration. After going down the mountain, Gu Beichen first called principal Spencer and said that the campers would arrive at the school in an hour. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo calculate the time. It''s almost more than an hour from Maiya mountain to Spencer. It''s just right. Jane Mo hasn''t seen the milk bag for a week, and she can''t wait. "Call for a villa tomorrow..." "Well, good!" Gu Beichen answered with a smile. "Well, wait, shall we go to the supermarket to buy vegetables first?" Jane Mo said excitedly, "I cook at night." "Well, good!" Gu Beichen continued to smile. He can feel Jane Mo''s happiness. He gently agrees with what she says The teacher is waiting with Jane Jie in the parking lot. Spencer''s children are the children of political and business celebrities. It can be said that on weekdays, there is no one at home, so they can only be sent here. But there are few people like Gu Beichen and Jian Mo who will be picked up in a few days Jian Jie has been looking at it with his neck hooked, and there is expectation in his black pupil. Although he wants to experience an independent life, he still wants daddy and Mommy... Well, Mommy is the most important thing. Of course, he won''t let mommy know. She won''t kiss him on the face as soon as she gets it. The car stopped in the parking lot. Jane Mo couldn''t wait to get out of the car. She was very happy to see Jane Jie dragging. "Milk bag, I miss you so much..." Jane Mo came forward and wanted to hold Jane Jie. Jane Jie is very embarrassed to get out of the way. She has nothing to say about Jane Mo calling him milk bag. Gu Beichen got out of the car and looked at the "interaction" between mother and son. He put a comfortable smile on the corners of his mouth and instantly reached the bottom of his eyes. "Eh?" Jian Jie suddenly brightened his eyes, looked at the clothes of Jian Mo and Gu Beichen and asked, "did you go hiking?" "How do you know?" Jane Mo asked subconsciously. Jian Jie looked at Jian Mo contemptuously. You look stupid. Please don''t lower my IQ. Jane Mo is very depressed. She thinks of the milk bag so much that the milk bag can''t show. Do you want to miss her? Who always despises her? However, when depression returns to depression, Jian Mo is still very happy... After all, it''s not normal for Jian Jie not to despise her. She''s used to it. Because Gu Beichen doesn''t want to expose Jian Jie for the time being, of course, the last three people go to the supermarket for the time being... But fortunately, there is everything in the villa. Jian Mo wants to cook a meal for three people, which can still be realized. Listening to the movement in the kitchen, Jian Jie asked around Gu Beichen, "Daddy, have grandpa and grandma finished?" Gu Beichen smiled, "you really broke the adult''s heart..." "No way..." Jane Jie sighed, and the little Zhengtai had no choice. "Mommy looks very strong, but in fact, she is a fragile little woman in her heart. I don''t worry about it, but what can I do?" "..." Gu Beichen suddenly twitched at the corners of his mouth, "you''re worried. What should I do?" As soon as Jane Jie heard this, she was stunned, then grinned and said, "I forget you. I should still be in England!" ... "Gu Beichen. Jian Jie didn''t forget him at all, but reminded him from time to time that he had missed four years Gu Beichen was unable to refute his son''s beating around the Bush and could only recognize it silently. The villa in the middle of the mountain is warm and all the aura has faded. The wife is preparing dinner in the kitchen. The husband understands his son''s recent learning and psychological development... Everything is intoxicating. Chu Zixiao drove his car to the east suburb. When he saw the car parked in front, he stepped on the brake. Someone leaned on the car and smoked. Because he was facing Chu Zixiao with his back, he couldn''t see who the other party was. Chu Zixiao put out the fire and got out of the car. When the man looked at him slightly, he stepped over "Look at the speed you come, you know how much you hope for Jane." Jane truss opened her mouth lightly, threw away the cigarette butts and twisted out her eyes with her feet. All the actions showed an evil spirit, which made people very uncomfortable. Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Heng, and his eyebrows were somewhat similar to Jian mo... he heard that Jian Mo said that she had a brother. But for too many reasons, he hasn''t seen it. "Are you Mo Mo''s brother?" Chu Zixiao asked with confirmation. Jian long glanced at Chu Zixiao and said faintly, "did Xiaomo mention me to you?" Chu Zixiao didn''t answer and didn''t say anything. "Xiaomo used to mention you to me..." Jian Chang''s eyes fell in front, because in the suburbs, his eyes fell out of darkness. There were only a few lights in the distance, but it was not enough to understand his eyes. Chu Zixiao was surprised. He didn''t expect that Jian Mo would mention him to Jian Heng. "How happy was Xiaomo at that time?" Jian Chang seemed to fall into a memory, "whenever I mention you, the corners of my mouth are curved. Oh, by the way..." He paused and looked at Chu Zixiao. "Xiaomo was not like this at that time. At that time, she didn''t like to laugh very much and was a little cold... But she would laugh every time she mentioned you to me." Chu Zixiao''s memory was suddenly pulled to the past by Jian Heng... As if, the memory came up all at once. "You asked me here to tell me that?" Chu Zixiao is a lawyer in the end. A moment''s shaking did not affect his calmness. Jian Heng smiled, "of course not!" Looking at him coldly, there was no doubt. "I just want to ask you..." there is a touch of evil at the bottom of Jian Chang''s eyes, which is fleeting and quickly disappearing in the dark night, "... Do you want Xiaomo to come back to you?" Chapter 322 Chu Zixiao looked at Jian long and narrowed his eyes slightly, as if he wanted to understand the meaning and purpose of his words. Before Chu Zixiao could answer, Jian Heng continued: "as long as you want... I have a way to get Xiaomo back to you!" "Why did you do that?" Chu Zixiao spoke coldly. Jian Heng smiled, "it''s very simple... Gu Beichen is the enemy of my Jane family. I don''t want to see Xiaomo continue to be deceived by him." After a slight meal, his vision became deep, "besides, Xiaomo is just confused by Gu Beichen... Xiaomo''s happiness is on you!" Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but looked at Jian long "Lawyer Chu, even if you don''t want Xiaomo to come back to you, I won''t let her continue to follow Gu Beichen!" Jane truss heaved a sigh, with pain on her face. Chu Zixiao was silent, as if he were thinking, and as if he were tangled Obviously, some things are obvious and even unreliable. However, at this moment, his thoughts fell into a vortex, as if one hand pulled him forward... And another hand pushed him from behind, making him involuntarily move towards the abyss An invisible abyss Chu Zixiao went back to his apartment and stood on the balcony, cigarette after cigarette in his hand. I don''t know when he started. It seems that he always paralyzed himself with smoke at night The mobile phone is unwilling to be lonely and buzzing on the table, which makes people restless. Chu Zixiao twisted out the cigarette butts in the ashtray and picked up his mobile phone. He looked at the call and picked it up, "huh?" "Zixiao, the case has made a breakthrough!" On the phone, Han Zhenzhen''s excited voice came. Chu Zixiao''s eyes narrowed in an instant, "I''ll go right now..." he hung up the phone, took the car key and drove to Chu Tang law office. The case with Mo Shaochen can''t be postponed. The last court session must have a result... The longer it is delayed, the worse it will be for his client. In the dead of night, in the law office of Chu and Tang Dynasties, Han Zhenzhen and Chu Zixiao studied the case together. After hearing all this, Chu Zixiao asked suspiciously, "where did you get these?" "Have you forgotten what my family does?" Han Zhenzhen looked proud. The Han family is everyone in the legal profession. It can be said that more than 90% of the Han family have entered these three related fields "It''s against the rules!" Chu Zixiao frowned slightly. "It''s good if no one knows..." Han Zhenzhen raised his eyebrows. "Moreover, what I get is only fur. It can be said that I still need your mouth to open the court that day!" Having said that, Chu Zixiao hesitated "After the incident, do you know what impact it has on you?" Chu Zixiao''s sight became deep. "Do you care about me?" Han Zhenzhen suddenly brightened her eyes. Chu Zixiao''s eyebrows frowned deeper, "you are my colleague and once a classmate!" "Chu Zixiao," Han Zhenzhen sneered, "we are not so clean..." Chu Zixiao was silent and didn''t speak. "You can use this thing if you like. If you don''t need it, it''s useless..." Han Zhenzhen continued to sneer. "However, I''m afraid you''ve lost this class. What you lose is not just your unbeaten record!" After the words fell, Han Zhenzhen took a deep look at Chu Zixiao, took his bag, turned and left the law firm In an instant, Chu Zixiao was the only one left in the law firm. He sat there weakly and his sight fell in front Looking at the bookshelf on the front wall, it seems that I can still think of his returning home at that time and forcing Jian Mo to design everything here for him. She loves herself, otherwise, according to her personality, she won''t escape him at all! It''s Beichen Beichen''s step-by-step coercion and temptation will make her farther and farther away from him. Chu Zixiao''s eyes narrowed gradually. When they finally became a gap, the cold light suddenly opened, but for a moment, it seemed as if all the dust had settled in his heart. Drooping his eyes and looking at the favorable evidence Han Zhenzhen got, Chu Zixiao slowly clenched his hand. His step-by-step retreat will only make Mo Mo farther and farther away from him... Whether it''s Jian Chang or Zhenzhen, what they said is right! There''s no way out for him, is there? Wutong across the phoenix tree, Wutong flowers just... Once, Jane frowning at him: "I wait for you under the Wutong tree, and I will leave when I can''t wait any longer." But she... Didn''t wait! A touch of resentment gradually loomed out in Chu Zixiao''s eyes, and all his emotions were like runaway wild horses, galloping and roaring... Filled with all his nerves. Everything is different Mo Mo, I want you to come back to me! must! At the weekend, Jian Mo was "suppressed" by Gu Beichen''s black belly during a day''s hiking and spent a day being disliked by milk bags. Originally, he Yining and one by one came to play at the weekend, but he Yining went to an academic exchange and brought them together. When she got up on Monday morning, Jane Mo felt a little dizzy and her nose was a little grumbling. He got up and was empty around him. Jane Mo shook her head and remembered... Last night, Gu Beichen said that she would go to Donghai city this morning and left early. Jane Mo was listless at work all day. She looked like she had a cold. She was really joked by the girl that night. Finally, she came to her excitedly and said that she finally knew what "wealth is thick" and "tolerance is big" mean. Jane has a black face "Tut Tut, sister mo..." Xiang night lay down in front of Jian Mo, "you and your family Gu are really bad fun." Speaking of this, Jane Mo has a headache. Gu Beichen Naya studied this problem with her after she sent the milk bag back to school last night... He interpreted the word "dressed as a beast" incisively and vividly. "Sister Mo, I bought you a thermometer and medicine..." Mu Xiaoran came in from the outside and raised the things in his hand. He shook his head and sighed to the evening. "Today''s children''s paper is really more likely to happen than I was then." "It''s good that you didn''t let me stop at that time." Make complaints about it, and then look at Mu Xiaoran and ask, "how much is it?" "No need..." Mu Xiaoran said and ran away. Jian Mo and Xiang night looked at each other, as if they were not in a state. Before mu Xiaoran could figure out what was going on, Jian Mo''s cell phone rang Seeing Gu Beichen, Jane Mo smiled at the corners of her mouth, "didn''t she say there would be several meetings?" "Well, take a break in your busy time..." Gu Beichen said faintly, paused and asked, "is your body uncomfortable?" "No..." "Your voice is a little grumbling!" Gu Beichen directly exposed it. Jane Mo said with a sweat. "I seem to have caught a cold. I''ve bought medicine." "Do you want to go to Yunze?" "No need..." Jane Mo had a headache. She didn''t know what she muttered and quickly changed the topic. "Will you come back today?" Chapter 323 "Don''t know until the afternoon..." Gu Beichen''s voice was calm. "Something happened to the company." "Is it serious?" Jane Mo asked with a wrung eyebrow. Gu Beichen''s thin lips heaved a faint radian, "in the range I can handle..." "That''s good." Jane answered and said, "you remember to eat." "Well," Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was slightly deep, "you remember missing me!" "Oh..." Jane Mo smiled sweetly at the corners of her mouth, and then hung up the phone. "Tut Tut, sister Mo, are you really good at showing your love in front of a single dog these days?" Turn over your eyes to the evening, and then make a distressed supporting wall, "God... Give me a tall, rich and handsome male loyal dog, too?" Jane Mo immediately felt a lightning strike, turned her eyes away from the neuropathy, and took the medicine. "Andy and I will go to the construction site of the Convention and Exhibition Center and call me when someone asks for me..." Jane Mo explained while putting the drawings into the tube, pulled out the USB flash disk, stuffed it into the bag and went out. Xiangwan answered and went out of the office with Jane mo. The design drawing of the Convention and Exhibition Center has been finalized, and now the construction site is waiting to start Jane and Andy had a pleasant tacit understanding when they cooperated in the school project, and this time, of course. Party A was very satisfied with the design of Jian Mo and Andy, but it ran in with the construction personnel on the construction site for a day. When the day was gloomy, it finally finalized all the plans. "Jane, let''s have dinner together?" Andy''s blue eyes were filled with urgent hope. Jian Mo sighed and continued to give Andy strong medicine: "I love my husband very much. I will never fall in love with others in my life, so... You have no chance!" "But we are friends!" Andy looked wronged and innocent. Jane Mo wailed in her heart You want to be my girlfriend, you know! I can''t do it My heart is like ten thousand grass mud horses whistling past, but Jian Mo tried to be calm and soft on her face, "I know, but I..." Before Jane Mo finished her words, her mobile phone rang. After she said "sorry", she hurried to take out her mobile phone No matter who called, she would like to thank you. However, when she saw that it was a group of strange numbers, Jane Mo frowned inexplicably, "Hello, Jane Mo!" The other party was silent at first and then said, "Xiaomo, I''m my brother..." Jane Mo asked coldly for a while, "how do you know my number?" "Why, that''s the attitude towards my brother?" Simple truss light EH. Jane Mo breathed heavily and even wanted to roar back: what face do you have now with the word "brother"? "Are you off duty?" Jian Chang didn''t seem to feel Jian Mo''s anger and said, "let''s have dinner together... After all, I''ve been back for a few days." "Sorry, I''m not free!" Jane stringer smiled, "Oh, that''s right..." he didn''t seem to be in a hurry, "I wanted to talk to you about my current identity!" "What does your identity have to do with me?" Jane Mo was so angry that she wanted to hang up, but before she hung up, the faint voice of Jane truss came. "Oh, I''m the third largest shareholder of JK now..." Jian Heng said with a light smile. "I heard... Something happened to JK in Donghai city today!" Jane Mo''s heart suddenly ''cluttered'' Ah Chen just went to the East China Sea? "What the hell do you want to do?" Jane Mo asked in a voice. "I booked a box in Wangjiang building, and our brother and sister haven''t had dinner together for a long time..." Jian Heng just said faintly. Jane Mo listened and hung up angrily. ¡°Jane£¿¡± Andy saw Jane Mo''s unhappiness and asked questions. Jane Mo took a deep breath and shook her head with a smile. "I have something else to do. It seems... I really can''t eat this meal with you." Andy''s face was bitter when he heard this. Jane Mo is not in the mood to take care of Andy''s mood at the moment. She just gets on the bus and drives to Wangjiang building... As the distance gets closer and closer, her heart gets more and more agitated. Just as the car stopped at Wangjiang building, a prompt tone of short message came from Jian Mo''s mobile phone. She took it out. It was Gu Beichen''s: there was a political bureau to participate in the evening. I''m afraid I can''t go back. Jane mumao the lower lip corner: business matters. There was a kiss on her back. Gu Beichen looked at it with deep eyes, and his thin lips involuntarily scratched a faint smile: if you feel like going back to the villa space, go to Xiaoyue for a night? Jane Mo: Hmm! I''ll sleep with another woman. You can''t sleep with another woman! After sending it, Jane added another one: you can''t sleep with a man! Gu Beichen saw that his eyes suddenly became deep. For a moment, the depths of the ink pupil seemed to slip through a touch of cold under the heavy and violent, but he disappeared in an instant. He didn''t even notice it. Gu Beichen answered and explained: remember to cover the quilt at night. If I go back and am seriously ill, spank! Jane Mo immediately felt sweet... With him around, she had nothing she couldn''t face. Just Jane Mo hesitated and sent a text message: is the matter in the East China Sea very difficult? Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, his thin lips slightly picked a light radian, avoided the important and replied to the past: in order to keep his wife''s assets at the top of the rich list, his husband will work hard! At first sight, Jane Mo didn''t think deeply, but after explaining two words of concern such as eating more and drinking less, she opened the door and got out of the car. As long as Gu Beichen feels there is no problem, she has no reason to believe Jian Heng. Just... How did Jian Heng become the third largest shareholder of JK? Jane Mo entered Wangjiang building with doubts, asked the waiter which box Jane truss was in, and walked to the second floor "Hey, boss, isn''t that the girl?" Just as Jane Mo''s figure slipped by, a man with flowing clothes whispered to the people on one side. Shen Hao noticed when Jian Mo came in. With her footsteps, his eyes moved... Listening to his little brother''s words, he smiled at the corners of his mouth and didn''t answer. After more than four years of transformation, this woman has not been forced by her brother to pretend to be calm in front of him with a check... Now she is more beautiful and more confident. It''s just a pity... It''s the victim in this vortex after all. Shen Hao thought, his eyes gradually deepened "Tut Tut, this girl is now being taught by Gu Beichen with more and more charm. It looks itchy!" Shen Hao took back his sight and glanced at the speaker. "If you want to die, just touch it." As soon as the man who spoke obscene before heard it, he immediately swallowed it secretly... With fear on his face. In due time, a little brother came back from the bathroom and said with bright eyes, "brother Hao, guess who I just saw?" Shen Hao looked at him. He raised his eyebrows, "I see Jane truss..." Chapter 324 Shen Hao looked at the little brother. The evil spirit slightly hooked a funny arc in the corner of his eye and sneered, "tut Tut, it''s quite interesting..." "Brother Hao, what do you mean?" The man sat down beside Shen Hao with a curious face. Shen Hao slowly lay back on the chair, his fingers beating on the table intentionally or unintentionally, and his eyes were deep. "Gu muhuai will come back in these two days, and Jian truss suddenly appeared..." After a pause, he seemed to be lost in thought. After a while, he began to say: "I really want to know whether Gu Beichen and Jian Mo knew each other''s things?" "Don''t you know?" Someone said hesitantly. "You see? After all, they are all public now..." someone immediately refuted. Shen Hao looked at the two people who were talking and smiled faintly at the corners of his mouth. Then, with evil eyes, he looked at the direction where Jane Mo had just disappeared When Jane Mo saw Jane truss, she hid a fire in her heart, as if she couldn''t control it. Although the events of that year made her have an intersection with Gu Beichen in her life, it doesn''t mean that she can forgive Jian Heng! "Come on, what the hell are you looking for me?" Jane Mo sat down opposite Jane truss and asked coldly. Jian Heng smiled faintly, "what do you want to eat? I remember you used to like the fish flavored eggplant here... I just ordered it. See what else you want to eat." With that, he pushed the meal card to Jian mo. Jane Mo looked down and then raised her eyes, "Jane truss, I didn''t come to eat with you... What''s your purpose, you can say." Seeing that Jane Mo didn''t give any face, Jane truss was not angry, but just motioned the waiter to serve. Jane Morse is patient. After several years abroad and recent events in Los Angeles, she is obviously more and more calm. "I went to see my father today and knew that my mother was her..." said Jane truss, with guilt on her face. Jane Mo didn''t speak, but looked at Jane truss calmly. "Xiaomo, I''m sorry!" With a deep sigh, "in the past, I was wrong..." Jane Mo looked at Jane stringer coldly and wanted to see how he continued to install. "When did mom leave?" Jane truss asked with a dignified face. "Is it important?" Jian Mo asked, "obviously, it''s meaningless." "Xiaomo..." "Jian Heng, the purpose you called me today should be related to Gu Beichen?" Jane Mo said bluntly, "is there anything you can say directly and don''t have to beat around the bush like this? Is it interesting?" Jian Heng looked at Jian Mo quietly. From beginning to end, he felt deeply guilty, "I don''t say that. Will you come?" Jane Mo frowned at the moment "Xiaomo, I know that the only person you care about now is Gu Beichen." Jian Heng was a little excited, "I also know how inferior I used to be... But I also want to have a chance to make up!" Jian Mo looked at Jian Heng. If he was sincere, she suddenly wondered... Is there really a gambler in this world who can turn around. If it''s fake... In the past few years when Jian Heng and she didn''t meet, they must have gone to practice acting hard, right? "You want a chance, don''t you?" Jane Mo opened her mouth lightly, and there was no too much expression on her beautiful face. Jane truss brightened her eyes and nodded hurriedly. "Then you should never appear in front of me again, which is the best remedy for me..." Jane Mo said calmly, got up, took her bag and was ready to leave. "Xiaomo..." Jane truss stood up. "Can''t you really forgive me?" "Jane truss," Jane Mo didn''t look back, but said quietly, "on the day my mother left, I was thinking... Obviously, everything in Jane''s family is very good, although it can''t be compared with a rich family, but I have no worries about food and clothing." Jane Mo mocked herself at the corner of her mouth, "my father and mother loved each other very much. You were even more energetic at that time. You were a man of the moment in the University... I seemed to dare not slack off for fear that I would affect everything beautiful in that family..." She turned and looked at Jian Heng, "but when did it change in the end? I couldn''t remember it for a long time later... Do you know how much I adored you when I was a child and how much I resented you later." After taking a deep breath, Jian Mo didn''t seem to see the guilt on Jian Heng''s face, but then said: "later, you are completely strange in my eyes... Jian Heng, except for the blood in our bodies and our surnames, I really don''t know what we have to do now." After putting down this sentence, Jane Mo sneered, turned around, opened the door of the box and went out Cruel? Jane Mo doesn''t know... She just knows. Forgive her for not being able to do it for the time being. She is not so generous Maybe one day in the future, she can forgive Jian Heng, but it''s definitely not now! At the moment when Jane Mo threw the door, the guilt on Jane truss''s face gradually disappeared, replaced by the indifference under ridicule "Tut Tut, it''s really a lot of indifference..." Jian Heng sneered, and his sight suddenly changed to evil. "Xiaomo, you say you like Gu Beichen so much, where do I start... Is it good?" The cold voice echoed in the box and became treacherous with the gradually darkening weather After Jane Mo got into the car, she felt tired and lay back on the seat As she looked ahead, her sight gradually became loose and empty, and her whole body seemed to be evacuated by something. Just now, she said indifference to Jian Heng, but... That''s her only brother. With a self deprecating smile, Jane Mo starts the car and leaves From beginning to end, I didn''t see Shen Hao. "Brother Hao, are you interested in this twist?" The man who had been sitting at the table without talking before and whose bangs covered half his sight opened his mouth. Shen Hao looked at him and smiled: "Shanzi, Jian Mo is now a poisonous rose. Whoever touches it... I''m afraid something will happen." He said a meaningful sentence, and then turned back to the Wangjiang building. Donghai city. As a coastal city, the East China Sea has always developed rapidly and prospered... While as a port city, people are intoxicated with money and money. "Chen Shao, these are all good. Don''t you choose one?" The fat on the face of a certain department secretary trembled and looked obscene. Gu Beichen was so indifferent that a pair of ink pupils were calm without any expression, but the faint opening of thin lips: "Ma Bu, help yourself." As soon as Ma Bu heard this, he didn''t politely push Gu Beichen again. Gu Beichen doesn''t like playing with these women. Everyone knows that the scene is just polite After a while, the box has begun to stage a limited level picture. On weekdays, several men with five or six people suddenly have no lower limit in front of women... As if they always feel that their hands and mouth should be placed on others. Gu Beichen was so indifferent that he just took out a cigarette and lit it. He allowed the box to be filled with all kinds of "laughter", and there was no half expression on his face. When Xiao Jing pushed the door in, it was already a scene of erosion. He didn''t seem to see it. He walked to Gu Beichen, "Chen Shao..." and handed his mobile phone to Gu Beichen. Chapter 325 Lu man sent the text message. The content is very simple. I heard that he came to Donghai today. She happened to be there and wanted to meet him. "Chen Shao, are you in the past?" Xiao Jing asked. Gu Beichen looked at the scenery of the box that had been addicted to wine and color, and said faintly: "you stay..." at the same time, others had stood up. "Alas, Chen Shao... It''s agreed not to get drunk today!" Suddenly someone looked at Gu Beichen and asked. Gu Beichen''s cold face was so indifferent that he gently lifted his thin lips and said, "I have something to deal with. Xiao Jing will stay with you..." As soon as several men listened to it, they laughed and scolded with dissatisfaction, and then agreed. To be honest, if Gu Beichen is away, they can have more fun. Xiao Jing accompanied Gu Beichen out of the box, handed him his mobile phone and said, "I''ll watch here." "Try to satisfy them..." Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep. "Women, money... But tonight''s project approval must be won!" "I understand!" Xiao nodded. Gu Beichen turned around and left with a pocket in one hand The car is driving on the streets of Donghai city. Compared with Los Angeles, there is always a smell of salty and wet in the air because it is close to the sea. The car finally stopped at a VIP Club. Gu Beichen looked at the sign with soft light, then got off and went in. After Gu Beichen enters, he goes straight to the box where Lu man is located. In other people''s eyes, Lu man is his rumored girlfriend of Gu Beichen... Even because she is a bit like Shen Chu. However, no one knows... He just returned a favor to help Lu man. Push open the box door, Lu man has drunk a little... Gu Beichen frowned slightly and closed the box door. "Chen Shao, are you here?" Lu man''s face was crimson because of the smell of wine. When she saw Gu Beichen, she was a little embarrassed. Gu Beichen hasn''t seen Lu man for a long time. It should be said that he hasn''t seen Lu man when he pushed her acting career to the peak by himself. "How did you know I came to Donghai?" Gu Beichen sat down and lit his cigarette leisurely. Lu man quietly looks at Gu Beichen. Now she has gone international. Unlike four years ago, a certain department or bureau still hoped for hidden rules for her However, when people stand high, they are often empty. "There happened to be a sister working in JK, so..." Lu man laughed at herself. "What''s up?" Gu Beichen asked calmly and flicked the soot. "I heard that you and Jane Mo have made up... Congratulations!" Lu man said with a smile, and there was a touch of astringency in the bottom of his eyes. Gu Beichen looked at Lu man with deep eyes, "just for this matter?" The pressure of pressing people''s hearts was reflected in the light voice, but in an instant, the surrounding air seemed to condense. "I just haven''t seen you for a long time. I heard my sister mention it today, so..." Lu man''s voice hesitated. At last, his voice decreased. Gu Beichen calmly converged his eyes and twisted out the smoke in the ashtray, but slowly opened his mouth: "from the beginning, I told you..." "I know, don''t expect too much of you!" Lu man answered and smiled with self mockery, "no matter whether there is Shen Chu or Jian Mo, you can''t be mine!" Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but looked at Lu man indifferently "I didn''t mean to help you back then. You gave me all my achievements today..." Lu man took a deep breath. "I shouldn''t be greedy." Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned. At the right time, the mobile phone vibrated. He took it out and opened the screen Susan: there is something wrong with the stock price in foreign exchanges. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, but he recovered his calm in an instant: looking back at the closing. Susan: OK! Gu Beichen took back his mobile phone, put down his overlapping legs and got up. "Lu man, I''m here today and I''m going to your appointment for the last time... Now you don''t need me to help you increase your popularity, and I hope you know where you are..." The words fell, and he turned calmly and wanted to leave. "Chen Shao..." Lu man got up in a hurry. Gu Beichen stopped and looked at her Lu Manzhe lifted her lower lip and saw that she didn''t say anything. She suddenly rushed up, hugged Gu Beichen''s waist and put her face on his neck Lu man''s figure is relatively tall. With high heels of more than 10 cm, the whole person hugs Gu Beichen. The picture looks very harmonious Gu Beichen didn''t open Lu man, but said: "such a small trick is interesting?" Light Yi''s voice showed indifference, without the slightest emotion. Lu man''s heart suddenly ''cluttered'', lifted his heart and looked up at him innocently. Gu Beichen didn''t change his face. He just pulled Lu man away. "Last time, next time... I don''t mind destroying the career I gave you!" Shua, Lu man''s face turned pale. She bit her lower lip and looked at Gu Beichen in horror. Gu Beichen just gave her a deep look and turned away without saying anything The next day, Los Angeles came in drizzle. Jane Mo felt top heavy, her nose was even more grumbling, and she couldn''t breathe. "Girl, do you want to go to the hospital?" Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo with worry. "I''ll take some medicine first..." Jane Mo sniffed. "I feel that a woman''s resistance is poor after she has a child." Li Xiaoyue rolled her eyes. "It seems that some people rarely get sick in Britain for a few years..." Jane Mo smiled. "Your subconscious is that Gu Beichen will take care of me without Su Jun leaving?" "I didn''t say..." Li Xiaoyue shrugged. Jian Mo stared at Li Xiaoyue angrily, and then both went out to work As soon as I arrived at the company, someone was already waiting for Jane Mo, with a newspaper in his hand. "The news about me again?" Jane Mo asked listlessly. Xiangwan shook his head, then unfolded the newspaper: "Chen Shao meets his old lover at night. Is it unforgettable or resurgent? Gu Beichen senior club meets Lu man and is suspected of cheating in marriage!" Jane Mo frowned slightly, took the newspaper and read it There are not only photos of Gu Beichen and Lu man coming out of the club one after another, but also a picture that is not very clear, which seems to be a screenshot of monitoring... They hug each other and the angle looks very ambiguous. On the one hand, it''s inevitable that Jane''s words will be aggressive all the time "Sister Mo?" Mu Xiaoran frowned. "This report looks false. How can Chen Shao have anything to do with this star?" Jane Mo didn''t speak, but looked at the picture and said astringently, "but the picture is very close... Isn''t it?" She pricked her lips, and there was a touch of sour in her voice. Because of her cold, it was filled with sadness, "where there is no one, what does it mean for them to hold so close?" (ask for monthly ticket) Chapter 326 "Sister Mo, you won''t believe it?" Seeing Jane Mo like this in the evening, she suddenly felt a "click" in her heart, looked at mu Xiaoran, and said, "I knew I wouldn''t show you..." Mu Xiaoran glared fiercely at night. The message in his eyes was: just said don''t let sister Mo see it. You have to say it doesn''t matter! Xiang night felt guilty when mu Xiaoran looked at him. "Sister Mo, we Gu are so kind to you... This is Lu man''s trick. We want to take advantage of our Gu''s position." "Just..." said Mu Xiaoran with hatred. "Sister Mo, you have to trust our general manager gu! We all see him at the weekend. Who has seen him so considerate? I''m afraid no one has enjoyed it in his life except you." "Yes, yes, yes!" Xiang night also nodded in agreement, as if afraid that Jane Mo believed the contents of the newspaper. The sound of "Ding" came, and someone from the design department arrived. It''s Da Xiong, Mo Xiaoya and Sun Ke. "What''s the matter?" Sun Ke looked at the three of Jian Mo with a puzzled face. Xiang night, like the child who did something wrong, whispered what had just happened, "I thought sister Mo wouldn''t believe it, so she would..." the more she said, the more guilty she was, and her lips hung her eyes, "I knew I didn''t take it out just now..." Mo Xiaoya could not help laughing when she looked at Xiang night and Jian mo Xiangwan shriveled his mouth, "sister Xiaoya, you still smile..." "Mo Mo laughed. Why can''t I laugh?" Mo Xiaoya looks innocent. Xiangwan and mu Xiaoran both looked at Jian Mo, and saw that the corners of her mouth were holding back a smile, and there was a touch of banter in her beautiful eyes They suddenly understood that they had been fooled by Jane Mo! "Sister mo..." Xiang night gnashed his teeth. "Are you fighting with Lu man for your acting skills? You just scared me to death..." Jane Morse looked sad, "my acting skills are trained by someone..." During her two years of marriage, she always wanted to use her acting skills to take care of Beichen''s belly black and animal behavior. She also benefited a lot "I have 100% trust in my boss..." Jane Moyang raised the newspaper, "so these reports are not interested in me!" After that, she stuffed the newspaper back into Xiang Wan''s arms, smiled with Mo Xiaoya, and then turned into the office. Gu Beichen stood in front of the office window of JK''s building in Donghai city. The rising sun fell on him through the clean glass window and coated him with a thin halo. "Dong Dong!" As the knock came, Xiao Jing pushed the door and came in. "Chen Shao, the report from Los Angeles came out..." Xiao Jing handed over the printed report. Gu Beichen looked down and chose the right angle. At least... Whether it''s him or Lu man, it seems that he has some feelings. "It''s not bad..." Gu Beichen spoke faintly and couldn''t hear his mood at the moment. Xiao Jing grinned secretly and remained silent. Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone and called Jian mo "Huh?" Jane Mo whispered softly, waiting for Gu Beichen to speak. "A bad cold?" Gu Beichen frowned in an instant. Jane Mo said, "well," it''s raining in Los Angeles. Where are you? " "The sun is very good..." Gu Beichen''s eyes slipped over and worried, "I''ll deal with it here. I''ll go back in the afternoon." "If it''s because of my cold, I personally think I can take care of myself..." Jane Mo said in a hoarse voice. "What if I said it was because of the report?" Gu Beichen has deep eyes. Jane Mo smiled. "If you really want to steal, you''ll be caught in such a simple way... Seriously, I''ll doubt your IQ!" She can also use IQ to say things... How does it feel great? No wonder the milk bag always talks about things with her IQ! Jane Mo is thinking of entertaining herself. "Aren''t you afraid it''s true?" Gu Beichen slightly hooked his thin lips, and a smile spread out in the fundus of his eyes. "If one day, I will turn around quietly..." Jane Mo said seriously. Gu Beichen immediately frowned, and the smile at the corners of his mouth froze there, "if you dare to turn around, I dare to lock you up!" "Overbearing..." Jane Mo sniffed, and then chuckled. He felt that he had been fooled by Jane Mo, and Gu Beichen looked at the morning light deeply... This little woman seems to be riding on his head now. Just as everyone was waiting for the reaction of Jian Mo and Gu Beichen with the mentality of watching a good play, what they took was ignored, which immediately disappointed the people watching a good play. In Gu''s manor, cen Lanxi sneered at the newspaper. "It seems that Beichen has to be simple and foamy..." Gu Moyuan frowned, "Lanxi, can you leave Beichen alone?" He said with a deep sigh, "when mom''s birthday is over, we''d better leave..." CEN Lanxi put down the newspaper and looked at Gu Moyuan. "Why, are you afraid of facing a woman who is very similar to Su Mo?" "What are you talking about?" Gu Moyuan sighed weakly, "I don''t want you to be seriously ill." Referring to his illness, cen Lanxi endured it and still didn''t speak. But when she looked back, a strange emotion slipped across her eyes ¡­¡­ Jane is a little confused because of her cold. Originally, I had to go to the construction site of the Convention and exhibition center with Andy today. Because of the rain and a cold, Andy was very gentlemanly and didn''t let her go. He said he could handle it alone. With more cooperation on weekdays, Jane Mo felt relieved about Andy... Finally agreed. "Little Jane, if you''re really uncomfortable, go back and have a rest?" Tang Haoyang opened his mouth when he saw Jian Mo''s look of five fans and three ways. Jane Mo was really uncomfortable. She was so sore that she nodded and asked for leave to go home. I wanted to drive, but I thought my current state was really not suitable. Don''t harm others and yourself... Finally, I just took a taxi. "Villa in the middle of the mountain..." Jane Mo said weakly. "OK!" The driver answered, looked at Jane Mo in the back seat from the rearview mirror and started the car. Jian Mo leaned back on the seat and looked at the continuous drizzle outside, powerlessly fanning her eyelashes Suddenly, Jian Mo felt that the surrounding environment was wrong and couldn''t help asking, "master, isn''t this the right way?" "There was an accident on Fenghua Road, so we can only go this way..." said the driver. Jane Mo didn''t care, just "Oh" and then didn''t speak. The driver looked at Jian Mo from the rearview mirror, then pressed the CD, played soft music, and then continued to drive forward Jane Mo listened to soothing music and looked at the street view passing outside under the continuous drizzle. Her eyelids seemed to be pressed down by a thousand kilograms Finally, I fanned my eyes twice and fell asleep Chapter 327 The driver looked at Jian Mo from the rearview mirror and closed his eyes. He just converged at a glance and continued to drive forward After a while, he stopped slowly when the bus went to the urban area and there was no one at the fork of the road leading to the mid level villa. Take out the mobile phone, the driver quickly sent a text message out, and then waited. It''s still raining outside, and it''s getting darker and darker. A low-key luxury car came slowly and stopped behind the taxi The driver looked back and got out of the car with an umbrella. "Qin Shao!" The driver bowed slightly at the open window in the back seat. Shi Shaoqin looked ahead and said faintly, "take out the needle..." "Yes!" Mosen answered and took out the tools from the toolbox. Then he got out of the car and went to the taxi in front. The driver hurried over with an umbrella to keep Morson out of the rain. Morson glanced at Jane Mo, who was already in a coma, then took out his tool, pulled her left arm, looked at the swelling place, and put the tool in his hand on her arm As time went by, the raindrops fell on the umbrella and made a crisp sound... So that the light sound of something sucked out was completely submerged in the rain. "Well..." Jane Mo whispered, and the center of her eyebrows wrinkled... But when she turned around, she fell asleep again. Morson looked at the needle in his hand, which was almost the same as his hair, only half a centimeter, and then turned to the car behind him. "Take it out?" Shi Shaoqin gave a light sigh, and the long and narrow Phoenix eyes showed an enchanting smell. Mosen answered, "take it out..." Shi Shaoqin looked out of the window and said, "wake her up later..." "Yes, Qin Shao!" The driver answered and then watched Shi Shaoqin''s car leave before he got on the car in a hurry The rain is still falling. When Jane Mo woke up, she found that the car was parked at the fork of the road and didn''t go. She could not help frowning, "master, what''s the matter?" The driver looked in the rearview mirror, "you just fell asleep. I don''t know which building it is. I called you several times. I saw you didn''t wake up, so I had to stop here first..." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, her face turned slightly red, "sorry, I''m a little uncomfortable, so..." "It doesn''t matter. Doesn''t it still wake you up?" The driver grinned, "Miss, if you''re not feeling well, would you like to take you to the hospital first?" "No need..." Jane Mo smiled faintly, and then showed the driver the way. She got off with an umbrella. Aunt Luo happened to say something to the gardener at the door. Seeing that Jane Mo came back, she hurriedly greeted her, "young grandma, why are you back now?" "I''m a little uncomfortable, so I came back first..." Jane Mo only felt her throat and smoke, burning badly. Aunt Luo approached Jian Mo''s forehead and said, "it seems that she has a fever..." she hurriedly asked Jian Mo to go back to the house, "take a hot bath first, and I''ll make some ginger tea for you... I''ll call doctor Fang and let him come over." "Dr Fang?" Jane Mo wondered. "Oh, it''s the family doctor who takes care of the family..." aunt Luo said anxiously. "Although it looks like a cold and a little fever, it''s better to see a doctor. You young people are most afraid of seeing a doctor... It''s not good!" Listening to Aunt Luo''s rambling words, Jane Mo felt warm for a while. That feeling was like that of her mother. I don''t know if it''s psychological. After taking a hot bath and drinking aunt Luo''s ginger tea, Jian Mo felt much better before the doctor came. When Dr. Fang came, he measured Jian Mo''s temperature. It was normal, but the flat conductor was still a little inflamed. "Young people have good physical function and are basically fine when they sweat. However, don''t catch a cold again later, it will be more serious..." "Thank you, Dr Fang!" Jane Mo smiled and thanked. "Yes..." Dr. Fang nodded with a smile and left several suitable medicines out of the bedroom. Aunt Luo explained to Jian Mo and sent doctor Fang. When she arrived at the door, she saw Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing come in. "Chen Shao!" Doctor Fang nodded with a smile. Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly cold, looked at the second floor, and then asked, "is Mo''er okay?" "Young lady is much better." Gu Beichen nodded. "Doctor Fang, please come..." he said, motioning to Aunt Luo, and then stepped upstairs. Doctor Fang was stunned in situ, as if he couldn''t respond, "Chen Shao was just saying... Trouble me?" He asked aunt Luo in an uncertain whisper. Aunt Luo nodded and smiled. Dr. Fang felt his nose sour in an instant. "This... Makes me think I''ve gone back to the past." As soon as aunt Luo heard this, she couldn''t help sighing. Looking at Xiao Jing, she asked, "have you eaten yet?" Xiao Jing immediately circled aunt Luo''s arm, "aunt Luo, you are so hot eyed... You''ll be back as soon as you get off the plane. Chen shaose forgets himself and has an empty stomach!" "Virtue!" Aunt Luo smiled and scolded, "you send doctor Fang, and I''ll get you something to eat." "OK..." Xiao Jing answered, kissed aunt Luo on the face, and then sent Dr. Fang out. "Dr. Fang, is Mrs. Shao just a cold?" "Yes!" Doctor Fang answered, "what else do you think it is?" "Of course not... Hey hey!" The doctor smiled and left. In the bedroom, Gu Beichen''s cold face was dark. Jane Mo looked at him timidly. Seriously, every time Gu Beichen was cold, she was afraid of him "I didn''t know it would be serious last night," said Jane Mo hesitantly. "It''s mainly... It''s raining! Yes, it''s raining!" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but looked at Jian mo. "I''ll come back and have a rest when I''m not feeling well..." Jane Mo pulled the corner of her mouth, "look, it''s much better." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and began to feel dissatisfied. He couldn''t help sighing, "I can''t leave for a moment..." He said something reluctantly. He sat down by the bed and reached for Jian Mo''s forehead. When he saw that it was really not burned, he was a little relieved. At that time, I got off the plane and saw the text message sent by mu Xiaoran to him. I ran all the way back to the villa. Fortunately, I saw that she was in good spirit Gu Beichen sighed secretly. Now he can''t even rest assured that she has a cold. It seems that he has been too sensitive recently. "Has the matter over there in the East China Sea been handled?" Asked Jane mo. "Yes." Gu Beichen looked slightly deep, "trying to change the topic?" Jian Mo knew that Gu Beichen was angry that she didn''t take good care of herself. She felt guilty. He was so busy and had to worry about himself. "Are you going to be busy later?" "Not busy..." Gu Beichen opened his eyes and lied. "I''m a little sleepy..." Jane Mo asked with bright eyes, "can you sleep with me for a while?" Chapter 328 Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s rare coquettish appearance. Where could he have the heart to refuse? After returning his coat, Gu Beichen lay on the side of the bed, took Jian Mo into his arms, sighed, and said nothing. Jane Mo turned over slightly and stopped after finding a comfortable position in his arms Neither of them spoke, and the only quiet thing in the bedroom was the sound of each other''s breathing. "I will take good care of myself in the future..." Jane Mo said after a long silence. Gu Beichen sighed, "I didn''t take good care of you!" Jane Mo''s nose was sour. "Ah Chen, will people become vulnerable when they are ill?" "Hmm..." Gu Beichen answered softly, and the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly. What was faintly appearing in the depths of the ink pupil? Jane Mo smiled. "I came back from the company, sat in a taxi and looked at the rain... I miss you very much. Maybe rainy days are the weather I miss..." Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo a little tight, and his eyes have recovered their calm. "When you are ill, people''s willpower is relatively weak, so it will be easy to be fragile." After a pause, Gu Beichen tilted his head and kissed Jian Mo''s forehead, "Mo''er, I''m the first person you can think of when you''re vulnerable. I''m very happy..." Jane Mo slightly looked up and kissed Gu Beichen on the Chin However, because of the faint stubble, a kiss fell and was a little itchy, Jane Mo couldn''t help laughing. Gu Beichen looked at her occasionally naughty appearance, helpless and happy, "don''t you say you''re sleepy? Close your eyes and sleep... Wait, I''ll ask aunt Luo to get you something light to eat and wake up to eat, huh?" The sound of light eh fell, and Jian Mo answered gently, and then closed her eyes... She was really sleepy just after taking the medicine. Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo like this. After a while, he heard the sound of even breathing He looked down at Jian Mo, who had fallen asleep. His sight was deep. He waited for a long time before he gently put her down. Jane Mo slept soundly. After Gu Beichen put her down, he just turned over uneasily and continued to sleep Gu Beichen covered Jian Mo with a quilt and turned her mobile phone to silent before gently exiting the bedroom. "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing saw Gu Beichen coming out and greeted him. Gu Beichen went downstairs. "When will Susan arrive?" "It should be here soon..." Gu Beichen answered and went to the table to eat. He didn''t trust Jian Mo, but the emperor had something urgent to deal with. He had to move his office to the villa ¡­¡­ In the third courtroom of the Los Angeles court, the atmosphere was dignified and tense. Li Xiaoyue sat in the last row and watched Chu Zixiao and Mo Shaochen calmly expound the evidence of the defense and the prosecution, trying to win the greatest benefit to her side from a small amount of speech analysis. Many of the people who came to the hearing today are lawyers in the criminal and defense circles. The final contest between the two giants should not be missed. Everyone is not disappointed by Mo Xiaochen''s rigorous words The atmosphere became more and more tense. When the lawyers of both sides presented their arguments and made concluding remarks, everyone''s heart was raised to the throat. As a prosecution lawyer, Mo Shaochen took the lead in making a concluding statement He was calm and composed. From the root of human nature to the scope of society, every point raised made the atmosphere dignified, and everyone pondered his argument one after another Chu Zixiao''s eyes were deep and slightly drooping, and collected the strange emotion from the bottom of his eyes. After Mo Shaochen finished his summary speech, it was Chu Zixiao''s turn... At this moment, the scene has reached a point. It seems that everyone thinks Chu Zixiao is going to lose... Even the judge thinks so. Mo Shaochen''s words are so precise that everyone''s thoughts can only follow him! However There are always accidents in this world! "Your honor, can I present one last piece of evidence before I make my statement?" Chu Zixiao said faintly, "it''s related to the maximization of my client''s own interests. Please agree with your honor." The judge felt that Chu Zixiao didn''t care about the last dying struggle Someone presented the evidence presented by Chu Zixiao. The judge looked at it and looked at Chu Zixiao in surprise. Chu Zixiao waited indifferently, with theout any expression. "Show it to the jury..." the judge said with restraint. The jury was also curious about what evidence Chu Zixiao handed over. While circulating it one after another, he made a summary speech in due time. Unlike Mo Shaochen''s long flowing water, Chu Zixiao''s words are sharp and sound everyone''s nerves like an alarm bell. Li Xiaoyue''s heart beat like a drum. When Chu Zixiao finished his summary speech, the judge reminded the jury of the relevant views... Then, what is waiting is the final trial. Everyone is curious about the evidence submitted... But even so, most people are still determined that this lawsuit will be won by Mo Shaochen! Mo Shaochen sat in his seat with a calm face. Han Yifei looked at Chu Zixiao nervously, and then looked at Mo Shaochen, "Mo argue, look at the result..." "I lost!" Mo Shaochen looked slightly deep and spoke slowly. Just as Han Yifei opened his mouth, the judge''s voice came before he reacted Han Yifei and the bystanders listened to the judge''s words and were stunned until the judge''s final judgment came: "the defense is not guilty, and will be acquitted in court!" Cheers and startled voices rose and fell one after another. It seemed that everyone except Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao was surprised by the result. The outside media has been agitated. For the two invincible myths, today''s duel will eventually leave a failure on the track of life The court has broken up. After another, someone went out, but Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao didn''t move. The crowd was all gone. In the huge courtroom, only Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao were left. The atmosphere was once condensed, and the air was filled with a depressing atmosphere. "Why?" Mo Shaochen slowly opened his mouth and looked at Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao didn''t speak. Mo Shaochen''s face was already angry. "Zixiao, do you know what you''re doing?" Chu Zixiao still didn''t speak. "As a lawyer, do you know the consequences of improper evidence collection if it is found?" Mo Shaochen gritted his teeth and asked solemnly, "you have abandoned the principle of being a lawyer!" Chu Zixiao finally had a reaction, but looked slightly at Mo Shaochen, "I only know that I can''t let him go to jail... He is the key to Beichen!" Then he got up indifferently and walked out without stopping Mo Shaochen remained stunned and frozen in place, as if he could not respond to Chu Zixiao''s reason! (ask for monthly ticket!) Chapter 329 The drizzle is still falling, but it can''t stop the enthusiasm of the media. Outside the court, the media in Los Angeles surrounded Chu Zixiao. When they handed the microphones one by one, the sound of the camera shutter slipped "Chu Bian, win this lawsuit. Do you have anything to say?" "Chu Bian, I heard that the key to your final victory or defeat is a piece of evidence that is very favorable to your party. If so, why didn''t you appear in court before?" "Chu Bian, you keep the myth of invincibility and defeat Mo Bian. Can you talk about your feelings?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The noisy voice kept around Chu Zixiao''s ear. He looked calm, not arrogant and impetuous. He couldn''t see his mood at the moment. He just walked forward under the obstruction of the assistant... Until the assistant opened the door. "Don''t argue it out!" I don''t know who shouted. Suddenly, all the media returned and surrounded Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen also ignored what everyone was asking, but looked up at Chu Zixiao from a commanding position But at a glance, they took all their eyes off each other. But also because of this look, it seems that many emotions of each other are contained in it Chu Zixiao turned and got on the bus. The assistant took the umbrella and went to the co pilot. Mo Shaochen just watched Chu Zi''s roller coaster leave and continued to walk forward. "Mo Bian, can you talk about your feelings?" Mo Shaochen stopped and looked at the reporter who had been struggling with his loss. He slightly hooked the corners of his mouth. It was very light. He couldn''t see clearly under the hazy drizzle He opened his lips and said, "I don''t know if anyone can win all his life. At least, I can''t!" Then he calmly took back his sight and walked forward Li Xiaoyue stands not far away, holding a black umbrella, which is not abrupt in such a place. She looked at Mo Shaochen quietly. From the beginning of her worry to the last smile in her mouth, the gravity in her heart gradually dispersed This is the Mo Shaochen she knew. She was flattered and humiliated and looked at the situation with a smile. Winning or losing is not important to him... What matters is that he tries his best. Suddenly, Mo Shaochen stopped and looked slightly... Just when Li Xiaoyue was distracted, the man had stood in front of her. "Let you down today?" Mo Shaochen spoke faintly. Li Xiaoyue suddenly regained her consciousness. She was stunned when she saw Mo Shaochen in front of her, but she also recovered her calm in an instant. "The word disappointing should never appear on the senior students." Mo Shaochen listened, lowered his eyes and smiled. Then he raised his eyes and asked, "don''t you plan to go?" "I just want to see how you deal with the media..." Li Xiaoyue joked. "I''m afraid I''ll become a famous debater in the future. I don''t know how to deal with the media." "What about now?" Li Xiaoyue raised her eyebrows. "Whatever the reporter asks, just walk calmly and let them guess for themselves..." As soon as Mo Shaochen heard it, the smile on the corners of his mouth deepened. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen stood in front of the study window with his hands in his pockets. On the video display behind him, there were red and green stock market lines, which echoed like mountains. Susan and Xiao Jing are on one side of their desks respectively, and their fingers keep tapping on the keyboard... Such a sound is in sharp contrast to the light sound of the drizzle falling on the window. "Chen Shao, someone maliciously bought it!" Xiao Jing suddenly raised his eyes and looked at the lonely and tall figure in front of the window, with a dignified face. Gu Beichen''s thin lips lightly hooked, and a pair of eagle eyes were already familiar with the bottom, "how much?" "3% already!" Xiao Jing''s face became more dignified. Gu Beichen sighed, as if he had no choice. "3%... If it''s the second uncle''s action, he already has 35%." There is a difference of 3% between each other... However, if the external retail stocks continue to be acquired, the situation is really interesting. "Closing!" Susan also looked back at Gu Beichen and said. Gu Beichen turned around and looked at the big screen. There was the transaction volume of the Emperor today... It was really interesting to keep the original state. The atmosphere in such a large study was dignified. Xiao Jing and Susan only felt that their heartbeat became slow under the pressure of the surrounding atmosphere. Gu Beichen quietly looked at the stock market trading chart, and the eagle''s eyes gradually narrowed Uncle, it''s not like this style! "Qin Shao has completed 3% of the acquisition, and the transaction volume remains the same as you ordered!" There was no light in the dark house, perhaps because of the rain outside. Even in the gaps of the curtains that were not closed tightly, there was no light. Shi Shaoqin stood there and looked at the rain winding down the glass from the gap. There was a strange smile on his evil face. "Wait until Gu muhuai comes back..." a long and far-reaching voice came. "Yes!" Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak any more, just slightly lowered his eyes and looked at the needle taken out of Jian Mo''s body between his slender fingers The needle was smeared with silence before because after the needle enters the body, it will not appear until silence is completely dissolved in the body... It seems that everything is silent. Shi Shaoqin slightly hooked an indifferent radian on the corner of his mouth. He saw his beautiful lips gently open and his voice overflowed coldly: "the game starts again... Chen, only three months, you know!" Mosen stood in the corner, his eyes penetrated the darkness and fell on the face of Shi Shaoqin, the most perfect masterpiece of God. He shivered at the bottom of his heart At the moment, he has only one idea. He is only the people around Qin Shao, not the people he values! Because on rainy days, it seems dark earlier. When Jane Mo woke up, Xiao Jing and Susan had gone After a sleep, Jian Mo''s spirit was much better. However, at the moment of waking up, her head was a little confused and chaotic. She put on her slippers, put on her nightgown, got up and stood at the door of the bedroom. The whole villa was quiet and frightening Glancing at the study, Jane Mo subconsciously walked past Push the door in and there''s no one inside! Frowned, Jane Mo just thought Gu Beichen was busy going to the company. After all, such a big emperor couldn''t really be busy. Going downstairs to find some water to drink, a slight voice came from the direction of the leisure room Jane Mo walked over and listened to Gu Beichen''s voice. Joy filled her eyes. Women are like this. Understanding is one thing, but when you find that a man really gives up his principles for her, the joy in your heart at that moment is irreplaceable. "You have no opinion on Zixiao''s lawsuit?" Just as Jane Mo was about to arrive, another voice came. Gu Beichen looked out of the window at the gray weather. After a while, he slowly opened his mouth: "if the people''s heart changes, what can I do?" Chapter 330 Jane Mo was frozen in place. Because of Mo Shaochen''s words, she knew that Gu Beichen said that Zixiao''s heart had changed Slightly frowned, and the depth of the black pupil gradually became dignified. "Aren''t you going to persuade?" Mo Shaochen sighed, "he will go further and further in this way." Gu Beichen took the coffee in front of him and drank it. He put it down calmly. His eyes were not lifted, and his voice was still calm. "His heart knot is in me, I''ll persuade..." he put a touch of irony on his thin lips, "I''m afraid it''s not appropriate." Mo Shaochen sighed heavily, "he used to be a calm person and always knew how to go... I just hope he doesn''t go wrong this time." Gu Beichen was silent. His cold, carved face was always indifferent... It seemed that he didn''t have too many emotional fluctuations except for Jian mo. Jane Mo stood outside, her lips clenched, her face a little dignified. She didn''t go in, but turned around... The sound of footsteps under the soft slippers became like a cat walking without making a sound. "Aren''t you going to explain to Zixiao?" Mo Shaochen asked quietly, "after all, the Yujing lake is not what he imagined." "And then?" Gu Beichen asked. His eyes fell on Mo Shaochen''s face in time, some deep. Mo Shaochen frowned slightly, "Beichen, what are you hiding in the end?" Gu Beichen was silent. He just looked at Mo Shaochen and his sight became deeper and deeper Deep, like a pool of stagnant water. There are no waves clearly and calmly, but the turbulent waves are hidden. "I won''t ask..." Mo Shaochen sighed softly, knowing that exploring the past is Gu Beichen''s taboo. "Shen Chu returned to JK, you know?" Gu Beichen immediately collected his breath and asked. Mo Shaochen nodded and then made a mockery of himself. "Shaochen," Gu Beichen said slowly and quietly, "if she violates my bottom line, I won''t show mercy." "What about Jane Mo?" Mo Shaochen asked angrily. He knew the answer, but he asked. Gu Beichen''s eyes softened, "she''s different..." He lay back slowly on the sofa and looked out of the window again. At the beginning of the lantern, the light was dyed into circles of halo by water mist halo, which was soft. "For Jian Mo, I can die..." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and said in a deep and quiet voice, "the principle is not so important." He hooked his thin lips, "not to mention..." he took back his eyes, looked at Mo Shaochen and took the second half of the sentence, "... She won''t do anything to embarrass me." This is how to lead each other''s hearts to achieve this? Mo Shaochen suddenly envied Gu Beichen Secretly mocked himself. At the right time, Mo Shaochen''s mobile phone rang. He looked at it and called and said, "aunt''s!" Gu Beichen didn''t answer. He just watched Mo Shaochen answer the phone. "Aunt?" "Come to me for dinner later, huh?" CEN Lanxi said with a smile, "I''m back. You''ve been busy with the lawsuit. It''s over today. Can you spare time?" Mo Shaochen smiled and answered, "OK!" CEN Lanxi laughed happily, "then I''ll wait for you to come and have dinner." Mo Shaochen answered again and hung up. "Aunt asked me to go over for dinner. Will you go over?" "No..." Gu Beichen said faintly, "Mo''er is not feeling well. I''m not at ease." After hearing this, Mo Shaochen didn''t insist. Gu Beichen sent Mo Shaochen to leave before he went upstairs When I opened the door of the bedroom, I saw Jane Mo with a book in her hand and looked at him with a slight frown. "When did you wake up?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo skimmed her mouth. "I woke up for a while. I saw you not in, so I read a book." Gu Beichen came forward and first explored Jian Mo''s forehead. Seeing that the temperature was normal and people were obviously in a lot of spirit, he scolded at the same time: "I''m downstairs. Why don''t you come down to find me?" "I think the villa is so quiet. I thought you were busy when you went back to the company..." Jane Mo was wronged by training. Gu Beichen sees, where can he bear to continue to blame? Take off the book in Jian Mo''s hand, Gu Beichen pulled her up, "I''ll ask aunt Luo to warm the porridge for you and go down to have some?" Jane Mozhe smiled and nodded, letting Gu Beichen pull her downstairs While eating, Jane Mo''s thoughts didn''t stop running. She wanted to ask Gu Beichen about Chu Zixiao, but she was afraid that he would be angry and finally gave up "Have something to say?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with a tangled look and made a sound. "No!" Jane Mo quickly shook her head. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "Mo''er!" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and asked, "I just saw the text message from Xiao Yue that Zixiao won Shaochen?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered indifferently. "Just ''um''?" Jane Mo curled her mouth and stared with some dissatisfaction. "Otherwise?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo choked now "As you said... One is my cousin and the other is my nephew. Their current status will match sooner or later. It will be sooner or later who wins and who loses..." Gu Beichen said calmly, "Mo''er, no one in this world can be strong enough to be invincible." Jane Mo knows this truth, but what she wants to ask more is whether Zixiao''s lawsuit has opened another shortcut. Xiao Yue said that although the last thing presented in the hall was within the scope of understanding, she always felt a little strange "Shaochen doesn''t care. You''re worried!" Gu Beichen shook his head and sighed. Jane Mo threw her mouth and muttered, "what I care about is the relationship between Zixiao and you..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen didn''t hear clearly, and light Yi coagulated his sight. Jane Mo shrugged proudly and continued to eat with an expression of "forget it, don''t say it". Looking at the wayward appearance of her little mind, Gu Beichen smiled and shook his head. "Shall we go out for a walk later?" Jane Mo slept all afternoon and became energetic. "No!" Gu Beichen immediately rejected it. Jane Mo frowned at him, "why?" "You''re better. It''s still raining outside. What if you catch a cold again?" Gu Beichen''s cold face said no discussion. "Just a minute!" Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep and simply said, "I have business to deal with." Jane Mo listened and said, "forget it..." Gu Beichen listened, and a faint smile slipped through the depths of the ink pupil... Can''t this little woman continue to be capricious? After dinner, Gu Beichen handles his business. Jian Mo doesn''t want to disturb him. He simply holds books on architectural design and reads them while chatting with Li Xiaoyue. Li Xiaoyue: would you like to talk to Zixiao? I always think today''s case is too strange. Jane Mo was dignified, but joked: it''s not because your invincible senior lost. Don''t you accept the reality? Li Xiaoyue frowned: girl, I''m not kidding Jian Mo looked at the content of the message. When she heard the conversation between Mo Shaochen and Gu Beichen in the evening, she felt as if she had suddenly pressed her breath and couldn''t be relieved In due time, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone rang. Jian Mo subconsciously looked up and saw him pick up, "huh?" "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing''s voice came from the other side, "the second master is back!" Chapter 331 Gu Beichen''s eyes suddenly gathered, and the sudden cold light suddenly came out Jane Mo frowned slightly and looked at Gu Beichen in a daze, with doubts in her eyes. Gu Beichen suddenly reacted that Jian Mo was also in the study, but in an instant, the cold light converged... It seemed that Jian Mo was just dazzled. "When?" Gu Beichen asked indifferently. "Just left the airport..." Xiao Jing''s voice was a little frozen, "I let someone follow." Gu Beichen slightly picked his eyebrows and said calmly, "no need." "Huh?" Xiao Jing didn''t react for a moment. "I won''t leave for the time being. When I come back at this time, he won''t be unaware that I have arranged someone at the airport..." Gu Beichen said faintly. Xiao Jing sighed and said nothing. "I''ll go to the company tomorrow." Gu Beichen finished his explanation and hung up. Jane Mo put down the book. "Are you hungry? I''ll make some snacks for you?" "Let aunt Luo do it," Gu Beichen gestured slightly, and Jane Mo got up and walked over. "Wait, you should take your medicine and go to bed early, huh?" Jian Mo sits down on Gu Beichen''s leg, arms around his neck and nods "So good?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil slipped a touch of teasing. Jane Mo turned her mouth and said jokingly, "you have to do something shady later. Of course I have to avoid it!" Gu Beichen looked deep, sighed and took Jian Mo into his arms. His cheek gently rubbed her soft and delicate face, "women are better stupid." "So you can fool, right?" Jane Mo laughed. Gu Beichen chuckled, but his eyes were deep and bottomless. "I wanted to arrange the wedding before Grandma''s birthday... But obviously, I''m in a hurry now." "I''m already very happy. I don''t care if there''s a wedding!" Jane Mo looked at the ring on her finger. "When two people are together, those forms are not important." "But that''s a woman''s dream..." Gu Beichen sighed and kissed Jian Mo''s face slightly. "I don''t want to leave regret for this wedding." Jane Mo doesn''t know if she thinks too much. She always feels that Gu Beichen''s breath is strange at the moment, but she doesn''t know what''s strange "I can wait!" Jane Mo opened a little distance, smiled at Gu Beichen, and said with a little pride in her bright eyes, "this time... There won''t be only grandma and them?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, "remember revenge!" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "It''s necessary... I want to remember that you were bad to me before I can suppress you in the future!" Then she kissed him on the face. "It''s so late, don''t disturb aunt Luo." Jane Mo picked the corner of her mouth and said with a smile, "I''ll make you a snack..." Whether Gu Beichen agrees or not, Jian Mo has let him go, and then gets up and leaves the study. Looking at Jian Mo''s cheerful back, Gu Beichen slowly lay back in his chair, and his eyes became deep Jane Mo made a simple night snack for Gu Beichen. Knowing that he was busy, she didn''t bother him. She took her book back to her bedroom. Because she slept all afternoon, she didn''t feel sleepy at all. She simply called Li Xiaoyue "Call me so late, why? Keep the empty boudoir alone?" Li Xiaoyue joked. "You want to peep into my boudoir so much. I think you''re in love?" Jane Mo went back. Li Xiaoyue rolled her eyes and felt that she couldn''t get the right to speak on this issue. She simply didn''t continue, "what do you want to ask Zixiao?" "Yes!" Jane answered. "Just now Tang Yu called me, said he was celebrating and asked me if I would go..." "And then?" Li Xiaoyue sighed, "I''m not in the mood." She paused and told the truth, "it''s not because Mo Shaochen lost the lawsuit, but because I feel inexplicable resistance and don''t know why?" Today''s Chu Zixiao always gives her a gloomy breath. Feel li Xiaoyue''s dignified, Jane Mo''s heart is also gradually heavy. "Girl, do you want to go back and ask me from Tang Yu?" Li Xiaoyue asked. Jane Mo pondered and answered, "ask the situation first... Maybe you think more?" "I hope so..." Li Xiaoyue sighed. "It''s not easy for Zixiao to have today''s achievements. We have a meeting. I really don''t want it to be what I guessed." But... Really? Jane Mo thought that she overheard the conversation between Mo Shaochen and Gu Beichen at that time and sighed secretly. The drizzle was falling outside, but the 18th floor of the emperor club was noisy. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were slightly chilly looking at the front. This place with simple foam design everywhere made his heart greedy, but his soul was resisting something "Zixiao, I''ll give you a toast..." Han Zhenzhen took the wine and sat down next to Chu Zixiao''s seat in the corner. "Congratulations on defeating Mo Bian." "There''s nothing to congratulate..." Chu Zixiao raised his hand calmly and drank up the wine in the glass. He and Mo Shaochen knew each other that he had actually lost the game Tang Yu frowned and looked at Chu Zixiao. He didn''t refuse to propose a toast to him. He just drank... He was not happy to win the lawsuit at all. "Zixiao..." "I''ll go to the bathroom!" Chu Zixiao leaned down, put down the cup and got up when Han Zhenzhen wanted to continue to speak, and walked out without any pause. Han Zhenzhen''s eyes were filled with complex emotions. Looking at Chu Zixiao''s back, he forced himself to laugh. Tang Yu glanced at her and immediately got up and followed her out. Chu Zixiao didn''t go to the bathroom, but went to the terrace at the end of the corridor and took out a cigarette to light it There was footsteps coming from behind. He looked sideways and saw that it was Tang Yu. He closed his eyes indifferently. "Unhappy?" Tang Yu asked clearly. Chu Zixiao took a cigarette anxiously, and the smoke was dispersed by the wind. It''s been raining all day. It''s not big, but it doesn''t stop, which makes people particularly upset. Tang Yu leaned against the pillar on one side, with his arms around his chest and his eyes looking at Chu Zixiao, "unexpectedly, he knew he was unhappy. Why did he do that?" "Don''t smoke," said Tang Xiaoyu. "I don''t have a choice." "You have!" Tang Yu said mercilessly. "I didn''t!" Chu Zixiao roared, with a feeling of resistance in his voice. Tang Yu sighed softly, "you can deceive anyone, but you can''t deceive yourself... Today, you violated your principles!" His words were like a knife, which tore Chu Zixiao''s heart open with blood. Chu Zixiao anxiously threw away the cigarette butts and twisted them out with his feet. His eyes were already scarlet "You will be here today. Why?" Tang Yu sneered, "ah Xiao, a simple foam ruined you!" Chapter 332 When it comes to Jian Mo, Chu Zixiao''s vision is deeper. Now, even her name has made him unable to resist He knew that he was forced into a dead end, but he had no way! When Chu Zixiao became more and more agitated, the mobile phone vibrated in his trouser pocket... He took it out anxiously and frowned instantly when he saw the caller ID. Tang Yu is a man with eyes. He gets up, taps Chu Zixiao on the shoulder, sighs and leaves first Chu Zixiao looked at Tang Yu and then answered the phone, "what''s up?" "Congratulations on winning the lawsuit." Jane''s voice came faintly, "thank you for leaving such a good witness for me." "What do you mean?" Chu Zixiao is cold and light. Jian Chang smiled, "don''t tell me you don''t know what I mean..." Chu Zixiao snorted coldly, "I really don''t know." "It''s good to know..." Jian Heng smiled. "Chu debate, I heard something. I don''t know if it''s true?" Chu Zixiao didn''t answer, just waiting "I heard that you have a 5% stake in the emperor?" Although Jian Heng was asking, it was obvious that he was sure. Chu Zixiao then tightened his eyebrows, "so what, not so what?" "Yes, we have business to talk about!" Jian Heng said slowly, "I''ll buy your shares. As a cooperation, I''ll try to make Xiaomo see Gu Beichen clearly, and then she can come back to you." Chu Zixiao''s eyes suddenly deepened, and then there was a touch of emotion in the depths, which gradually cracked "I''ll give you time to think about it," Jian Heng didn''t force Chu Zixiao to decide at the moment. "Three days later, I''ll find you!" The words fell, and Chu Zixiao was not given a chance to speak. Jian Heng hung up the phone In the past few years in Angola, he lived better than pigs and dogs every day... It was Gu Beichen who made him understand what human nature and the pursuit of human nature are! He should thank Gu Beichen for his Jian Chang''s sight gradually became far-reaching, and the corners of his mouth slipped fiercely. Chu Zixiao''s current state of mind is too clear. When he is more urgent and can''t get it... Often, there are only two final results. Or give up Or fall into a vortex! "Second uncle..." Jian Heng turned and looked at Gu mohuai sitting on the sofa smoking a cigar. "Are you sure that Chu Zixiao, the board of directors, will appear three days later?" "Who knows?" Gu mohuai smiled deeply at the corners of his mouth. In the depths of his eyes precipitated by years, there was a faint cold light, "as long as you give him enough temptation, he will naturally be unable to sit still..." As soon as Jane truss heard this, the corners of her mouth were filled with a smile, which was cold and gloomy. The next day, the rain in Los Angeles didn''t stop at all. Xiao Jing came to pick up Gu Beichen and Jian Mo and sent Jian Mo to Xiangyu first. "I''ll pick you up to grandma''s for dinner in the evening, huh?" Gu Beichen gently plucked Jian Mo''s short hair. Jane Mo nodded and smiled at the corner of her lips: "ah Chen, I''ll keep my hair, okay?" "For the sake of my deep gaze, Beichen?" "Yes!" Jian Mo smiled. When Gu Beichen didn''t respond, he quickly kissed him on the face, and then hurried out of the car... He ran forward without an umbrella. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at the charming figure with deep eyes. The thin lips gradually raised and smiled... Instantly reached the bottom of his eyes. Xiao Jing also looked at Jian Mo and sighed: "Chen Shao, is it really good for Mrs. Shao to tease you like this?" He turned back and grinned, "how do you feel that Mrs. Shao is a domineering female president now, and you are a little white face kept?" "Being kept is conditional..." Gu Beichen said faintly. "..." Xiao Jing grinned at this, "Chen Shao, you are so unkind! Nobody bullies me..." Gu Beichen''s sight gradually deepened. When Jian Mo''s figure entered Lingyu''s office building, he converged his eyes, "let''s go..." Jane Mo looked back at the car she left, smiled at the corners of her mouth, and then turned to the elevator. I''ve been busy all morning. Xiangyu is now well-known in Los Angeles, and more and more people come to Xiangyu design "Sister Mo, are you getting better from your cold?" Mu Xiaoran brought in the afternoon tea. "Basically all right..." Jane Mo shrugged. She came with a bad cold and walked very suddenly... I feel a little childish! Jane Mo just took a sip of coffee when the internal telephone suddenly rang. "Mo Mo, someone is looking for me in the reception room..." Sun Ke''s voice came from the phone. "Well, I''ll be right there!" Jane Mo answered, and then looked at mu Xiaoran''s helpless mouth and went to the reception room. Luo Xiaomi fanned his eyelids and looked around. There were some pictures of works in the reception room, including several of them. The sound of "pedaling" came from the high-heeled shoes hitting the ground. Luo Xiaomi looked nervously... He saw Jian Mo pushing the door and coming in. "Hello..." Jane Mo greeted politely with a smile. "Hello!" Luo Xiaomi hurried forward and shook hands with Jian Mo, with great enthusiasm. Jane Mo frowned secretly, but her face didn''t show, "excuse me, I''m looking for..." "I''m Xiaomi, a reporter of Metropolis Weekly. Our weekly is going to do several exclusive interviews with women in Los Angeles recently. May I invite you..." Luo Xiaomi said straight to the point. When Jane Mo heard this, she smiled politely, "I''m afraid I can''t help..." "Please, think about it..." Luo Xiaomi put his hands together and looked begging. "I can''t interview the gossip between you and Chen Shao, just for your design..." she said, adding hurriedly, "I have professional quality!" Jane Mo looked at the girl who was about 20 in front of her. She saw the twinkling cunning in her eyes... I''m afraid what she just said is the opposite. She just wants to ask about the gossip between her and ah Chen, which is second to design. "Then you need to make an appointment with our director..." Jian Mo directly pushed the question to Tang Haoyang. "Xiangyu stipulates that private interviews cannot be conducted." "Ah?" Luo Xiaomi suddenly grinned. "So, sorry!" From beginning to end, Jane Mo had a polite smile at the corners of her mouth. Luo Xiaomi immediately vented his anger, "I''m really sincere..." Jane Mo shrugged with a smile, indicating that there was nothing she could do. She is not interested in the interview Now she is a regular guest of the media and doesn''t need more popularity. What else does Luo Xiaomi want to say when Jian Mo sees off the guests, but Jian Mo looks calm and alienated. She can only give up Luo Xiaomi angrily entered the elevator and looked at Jian Mo who turned to the office. "What does my little uncle like about my little aunt? Although it''s very beautiful, my little uncle won''t be so superficial?" At the moment when the elevator door was closed, Luo Xiaomi''s mobile phone rang. She picked up: "Mom, why?" "Your second grandpa came back. Grandma shouted to go to her for dinner in the evening. Don''t say anything!" Gu Nanyi directly cut off Luo Xiaomi''s back road. Luo Xiaomi suddenly collapsed and went out when the elevator arrived. Suddenly "Mom, will my little uncle and aunt go back?" Luo Xiaomi asked with flashing eyes. Chapter 333 "It should be to go back..." Gu Nanyi immediately said, "you won''t forget grandma''s rules? Enter her and don''t talk about work!" Luo Xiaomi immediately felt that a flash of lightning cut her out of focus and tender inside. "You''re really my mother..." she said gnashing her teeth. "Can''t you not remind me?" Gu Nanyi smiled at the bottom of his eyes, "Luo Xiaomi, I can warn you... Don''t provoke your little uncle!" Luo Xiaomi tilted his mouth and whispered, "I don''t provoke my little uncle, I only provoke my little aunt!" "Huh?" Gu Nanyi didn''t hear clearly, but he made a sound. "It''s all right... I have to do an interview. Hang up!" Luo Xiaomi hung up without waiting for Gu Nanyi to speak. Gu Nanyi was annoyed when he listened to the hang up sound in his mobile phone. "It''s a sweet little cotton padded jacket that people give birth to a daughter. Why did I give birth to such a homeless person..." Thinking about it, Gu Nanyi couldn''t help glancing at the restaurant Gu Beichen was sitting face to face with a man, and the atmosphere was somewhat treacherous. "You asked me to cooperate... Why do I feel uncomfortable?" Chen Xuan smiled at Gu Beichen and looked at Gu Beichen playfully. Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was so indifferent, "didn''t Jinxi tell you?" Chen Xuan raised his eyebrows and deepened his smile. "When the emperor''s banner marches into entertainment, you can give way to Jinxi later." Gu Beichen slightly picked the tail of his eyebrow and showed his calm under coldness and arrogance. "Tut Tut, when did you Gu Beichen be so generous?" Chen Xuan sneered. Gu Beichen''s thin lips were light, and his smile was stiff in the corners of his mouth. "The benefits are for you, you can not answer..." "For the sake of your real identity, I''d like to talk with Chen Jin, but I don''t want to talk to you. Will you be in a good mood recently?" Chen Xuan immediately stared, "Gu Beichen, can you be more mean?" "If necessary, I can..." Gu Beichen was unmoved, but the ink pupil became deeper and deeper. Chen Xuan clenched his teeth and twitched at the temples. He looked up at Beichen''s cold sight and finally loosened his mouth. "What do you want me to do?" Chen Xuan knew that if Gu Beichen found out his identity, there would be endless trouble. "Inquire about a person..." Gu Beichen paused. For a moment, the cold atmosphere was everywhere, "little master of the ink palace!" Chen Xuangang is good at drinking water. When Gu Beichen said "ink Palace", he almost spit out a mouthful of water "Who?" Chen Xuan asked with certainty that the corners of his mouth twitched. "Shi Shaoqin!" Gu Beichen seemed to use all his strength when he said the name, but his cold face was still so indifferent that people could not see that his heart was already choppy at the moment. Chen Xuan''s mouth twitched even more. "Gu Beichen, who do you think I am? Although my family is also on that line... It''s far from Mo palace." "You just need to help me find out if Shi Shaoqin has left the Mo palace!" Gu Beichen spoke quietly, and Jun''s face was as cold and arrogant as ever. Chen Xuan looked at Gu Beichen curiously, "how did you get involved with him?" He took his napkin and wiped his mouth. "That man is a pervert... Few of them come to a good end." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil has no trace of temperature, "this, you don''t need to manage." Chen Xuan turned his eyes, and there was dissatisfaction on his face. "I can help you find out..." he said coldly, "but Gu Beichen, if you threaten me again next time, don''t blame me for turning my face and not recognizing people." After the words fell, Chen Xuanlian went away from the evil charm on his face, got up coldly, looked at Gu Beichen from a commanding position, turned and left. Gu Nanyi looked at Chen Xuan''s back and frowned slightly. Then he went to Gu Beichen, "is it difficult for the second uncle to come back?" "OK..." Gu Beichen said faintly, his voice was neither hot nor cold. "Elder sister and second sister still can''t get the shares back?" Gu Nanyi frowned. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but the corners of his mouth were slightly scratched. If there was a faint smile... That smile was filled with sneer. The second sister is watching. Now Zixiao''s shares Gu Beichen''s sight became deeper. I''m afraid it''s harder to get back than the second sister''s. After lunch, the rain stopped gradually. After work, it stopped. Gu Beichen picked up Jian Mo and drove to grandma Gu''s villa. "Do you know the milk bag for grandma?" Jane asked on the way. After all, now that his parents and Zixiao know, grandma doesn''t know if she will be angry? "Dad and mom know. Why doesn''t grandma know?" Gu Beichen rubbed Jian Mo''s hand, "since grandma didn''t ask, it means she knows we have our ideas..." Jane Mo listened and nodded. At first, she didn''t know what would happen with Gu Beichen, so she didn''t want to say But now the relationship between the two is completely open, and he doesn''t want to say it. However, he has his reason for doing so, and she doesn''t ask... Just trust him. When Gu Beichen and Jian Mo arrived at the villa, several cars had been parked in the parking space. Jane Mo is a little nervous. After all... This can be said to be the first time Gu Beichen brought her to everyone in the family. Besides, I have to meet Cen Lanxi later. "Afraid?" Gu Beichen said softly, with a teasing smile on the corners of his mouth. "It''s a lie to say you''re not afraid..." Jane Mo muttered. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and walked forward, "don''t worry, grandma''s authority is still... At least, everyone is convergent in front of grandma." "I''m glad..." Jane Mo smiled. "It seems that grandma likes me very much!" "Well..." Gu Beichen lightly hooked his lips and gently answered. Jane Mo stared obliquely, "I''m just kidding..." Gu Beichen stopped and felt that Jian Mo was really nervous. He raised his hand and smoothed her hair. "I''ll be by your side, huh?" Jane looked up at her with deep eyes. At the right time, a car stopped, and then came the sound of opening the door. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and then turned his head to look at a place Gu muhuai came over, followed by Jian Chang behind him. Gu Beichen''s cold face didn''t change any expression, but when Jian Mo saw Jian Chang, he couldn''t help but dilate his pupils... The bottom of his eyes was completely surprised. Looking at Gu mohuai and Jian Heng approaching step by step, Jian Mo''s breathing became dignified "Why is Jane truss here?" Jane morning looked at Gu Beichen with a voice, looking for the answer. Chapter 334 Gu Beichen gently pinched Jian Mo''s hand and didn''t answer. He just reassured her Jane moo smiled at the corners of her mouth, pressed down the churning thoughts in her heart, restored her calm and looked at the two approaching people. "Second uncle, I haven''t seen you for a long time..." Gu Beichen said faintly, neither hot nor cold, as if he were a stranger. Gu muhuai didn''t seem to feel Gu Beichen''s indifference. He smiled at Maitreya. "It''s been a long time... I''ve been abroad for several years. I''ve been talking about coming back to see you. This mess has been delayed until now." Gu Beichen lightly hooked up the corners of his lips. It was very light. He showed indifference. It was his consistent face to the outside world now. Gu mohuai looked at Jian Mo, "is this Xiaomo? He''s getting more and more temperament... Beichen''s training is good!" "Those close to Zhu are red..." Jian Mo said calmly, "thank you for your praise!" "Ha ha..." Gu muhuai smiled. "Well, it has indeed changed. Now I have confidence... Unlike Beichen, who was a little stubborn when he just led you to me." Jane Mo just smiled politely and didn''t answer again. She didn''t like this second uncle, especially after knowing that he framed Gu Beichen and lured him However, she still couldn''t figure out how Jian Chang and Gu mohuai could be brought together? Thinking, Jian Mo''s eyes looked at Jian Heng... Just in line with his eyes to her. There was a touch of begging in Jane''s eyes, as if waiting for her forgiveness Those who are close to Zhu are red and those who are close to ink are black. Gu mohuai is not a good man. If Jian Chang is involved with him, can he really get better? "The second master, Chen Shao and Mrs. Shao..." the servant came over. "The old lady said that everyone came and went to the flower house to find her." "OK..." Gu murhuai answered, motioned with Gu Beichen, and the four went to the flower house together. Grandma Gu is eighty-five years old this year. When she was young, she was also a heroine... After she retired, she has been exercising and cultivating herself, and her body is still strong. Many people have gathered in the greenhouse Mr. and Mrs. Gu Moyuan, Mr. and Mrs. Gu Ci, Mr. and Mrs. Gu Yuan, and Mr. and Mrs. Gu Nanyi... Now, with the four of Gu mohuai, the flower house has occupied half of the space. The atmosphere was a little tense. Grandma Gu was building flowers and aunt Lan was with her. No one spoke, but stood there quietly Grandma Gu suddenly looked back. When her eyes fell on Jane truss, she said calmly, "you, wait outside first." Then she didn''t look at it and continued to build flowers. The smile on Gu mohuai''s face remained the same, only slightly motioned to Xia Jian truss. Such contempt was an insult to Jian Heng, but due to Gu mohuai, he endured it secretly and turned and walked out Jian Mo looked at Jian Chang and felt more and more uncomfortable when she thought of the day he asked her to go to Wangjiang building... I don''t know why, she always felt as if something was entangled. Just as Jian Mo thought, Chu Zixiao and Luo Xiaomi came one after another... Except for Gu Yuan''s children in the army, the rest of the Gu family are here now. Luo Xiaomi quietly rubbed against Jian Mo''s side. Jian Mo subconsciously looked at her and was slightly stunned "Little aunt," Luo Xiaomi grinned, "I''m the daughter of the third sister next to you." "..." Jane Mo immediately felt a black line on her forehead and looked to Gu Beichen for an answer. "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered and the eagle glanced at Luo Xiaomi. Just at a glance, Luo Xiaomi was nervous and swallowed suddenly. After quietly saying "little aunt, I''ll find you later" to Jian Mo, he returned to Gu Nanyi. Gu Nanyi didn''t move, but he smiled in his heart Luo Xiaomi has been "ignorant" since childhood. In this family, no one is afraid except grandma and Beichen. "Everyone is here?" Grandma Gu put down her scissors, took the towel from Aunt LAN and wiped her hands. After looking around, she said, "it''s nothing. The second child is back. After thinking about it for a long time, don''t divide them... Besides, Gu''s family has added people. Everyone is busy on weekdays and may not have seen each other." After a pause, grandma Gu looked at Jian Mo, "Xiao Mo, come here!" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen. After he was encouraged at the bottom of his eyes, he walked over with a smile, "Grandma!" "Yes!" Grandma Gu smiled kindly on her face and pulled Jian Mo''s hand to everyone, "officially introduce Gu''s granddaughter-in-law... Who will be in charge of Gu''s backyard in the future." She said half jokingly. Everyone''s face is different, but they also bear it one by one CEN Lanxi looked at Jian Mo angrily, as if she was going to burn her directly. Fortunately, Gu Moyuan kept reminding her to suppress! "I admit it. If you are dissatisfied with anything, come to me and say..." grandma Gu said, but obviously, she was warning you. Jian Mo''s nose suddenly sour and astringent. Looking at grandma Gu''s line of sight, it was also filled with a thin layer of water mist... Moved and grateful. "Beichen..." grandma Gu shouted. "Grandma!" Gu Beichen Junlang''s facial lines softened a bit. Grandma Gu looked at Jane Mo with a smile. "Your wedding is going to be done... When Gu''s family comes to your generation, you''re the only man who makes people laugh?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently raised a thin radian and nodded. "Mom..." Cen Lanxi couldn''t help but speak. "OK..." grandma Gu interrupted Cen Lanxi, "it''s getting late. Alan, let''s have dinner." "Alas!" Aunt LAN answered. Grandma Gu opened her mouth, and everyone could only keep quiet... One by one, with all kinds of thoughts, went out of the flower house. Chu Zixiao was the last one to go. He just looked at the back of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo and felt particularly dazzling "Uncomfortable?" Jian truss smiled at Chu Zixiao and opened his mouth. "Why are you here?" Chu Zixiao spoke coldly. Jian Heng smiled, "I''m here... Naturally there''s my reason." Then he stared at Chu Zixiao deeply and followed Gu mohuai. He is now Gu muhuai''s son, but his real identity Jian truss sneered and looked at the back of Gu Beichen. The bottom of his eyes was completely cold and murderous. A meal, some people are happy, others are sad. Grandma Gu apparently came back because of Gu mohuai, but in fact, she officially introduced Jian Mo to everyone. Six years ago, after all, the marriage between Jian Mo and Gu Beichen was for the shares that Gu''s grandfather put in Gu mohuai. But now it''s different This also illustrates one point. What Gu Beichen admitted is what grandma Gu recognized Gu mohuai''s dark eyes covered by a smile inadvertently looked at Gu Beichen. With a sneer, his eyes fell on Chu Zixiao Tut Tut, a calm and self-contained lawyer, seems to be unable to calm down Chapter 335 A meal, it seems to eat and happy, but really no one''s mind is calm Even Luo Xiaomi, who has always been heartless, is thinking about how to get close to Jian Mo so that he can get an interview. But no matter who has any thoughts, no one dares to surpass grandma Gu''s majesty. CEN Lanxi, as the eldest daughter-in-law, just sits opposite Jian mo... Facing each other like this, the more she looks, the more angry she becomes, and her face will be distorted. Gu beicen is very worried about her illness, and Gu silently looks at her. Jian Mo was uncomfortable with Cen Lanxi''s angry eyes, but she could only bear it and pretended not to know... The action of eating was also generous, as if she couldn''t see anything. Gu Beichen looked indifferent outside. He didn''t have any expression from beginning to end except for occasionally considerate serving vegetables to Jane Mo and grandma Gu The breath flowing on the table is strange, which is why Luo Xiaomi hates such a meal most. The whole thing is boring! Finally, at the end of the meal, Luo Xiaomi couldn''t wait to find Jian Mo, "little uncle, little aunt, lend me..." she said, and without waiting for everyone to reflect, she pulled Jian Mo''s hand and walked out. "Luo Xiaomi!" Gu Nanyi shouted with a headache. Luo Xiaomi ignored it. As soon as she stopped, she not only couldn''t take it away, but also endured her uncle''s sharp eyes. She wasn''t so stupid! "This child..." grandma Gu shook her head and smiled helplessly, and then looked at Gu Beichen. "It''s OK for Xiaomi and Xiaomo to talk. Beichen, I just have something to say to you." "Good!" Gu Beichen answered. Grandma Gu looked at the crowd. "If you want to keep it for a while, just stay. If you don''t want to, just go." Then she walked out with the help of aunt LAN. There are few such "family gatherings" in the family. First, they are busy. Second, when the family is large, there will be more interests between them... The empty meal is not necessary and interferes with the purity. Gu muhuai gestured to Jian truss, and then walked to Gu Moyuan, "elder brother, I haven''t seen you for a long time." Gu Moyuan nodded, not resisting or alienating, as if Gu mohuai didn''t know what Gu Beichen had done. "Our brothers haven''t seen each other for a long time. Go have a cup of tea and play chess later..." Gu muhuai asked with a smile. Gu Moyuan looked anxiously at Cen Lanxi. Seeing Gu CI coming over and gesturing to take care of him, he went to the leisure room with Gu mohuai. If what is left is left, the rest will be scattered Chu Zixiao looked at Chu tianqin and Gu Ci and walked out with his hands in his pockets Because it rained, there was strong moisture in the air, mixed with the fragrance of green grass, which gradually eased people''s tension. "Little aunt, you see, I know your identity. I''m really not curious about the gossip between you and your little uncle..." Luo Xiaomi used his deceptive policy. "So, just promise me the interview?" When Jian Mo saw it, she was unable to laugh or cry Don''t say identity in the morning, don''t set up a relationship... Think you can''t make it in the morning, and you can talk about things with relationships in the evening? The family members are serious one by one. How did Luo Xiaomi get off the line? "I also want to promise you, but the company has regulations..." Jane Mo said calmly, "why don''t you ask our director tomorrow?" "Ah?" Luo Xiaomi threw his mouth, "little aunt, can''t you open a back door?" "The back door?" Jane Mo said, thinking seriously under Luo Xiaomi''s expectant eyes, "it''s not impossible... But you have to find your uncle!" Poof Luo Xiaomi took a mouthful of blood and tried to commit suicide with a knife. "Little aunt, you play Tai Chi..." Luo Xiaomi muttered and said in the end, "well, well, I actually want to gossip about the love between you and your little uncle." Seeing the little girl admit it, Jane Mo smiled. Luo Xiaomi pulled Jian Mo''s arm. "Little aunt, I don''t report, just satisfy my curiosity..." she glanced and muttered discontentedly, "you know, my uncle can kill with one look and don''t tell me anything." Speaking of this, Luo Xiaomi suddenly drooped his shoulders. "When I was a child, my little uncle was not like this. At that time, he was cute and smiled very well, just like bathing in the sun... It''s not like now. It''s cold all day, even if he smiles without warmth." Jane Mo was a little surprised. Although Gu Beichen often smiled in front of her, it could be that the animals under the evil spirit were before, and now they are also that kind of elegant and gentle It seems that what Luo Xiaomi said is completely irrelevant. "Why did he change so much back and forth?" Jane Mo asked subconsciously. Luo Xiaomi raised his lips and just wanted to say, suddenly his eyes lit up, "little aunt, why don''t you... Tell me about you and your little uncle, and I''ll tell you about the things before your little uncle!" "Forget it..." Jane Mo looked calm. "It''s always good to keep a sense of mystery." Luo Xiaomi twitched at the corners of his mouth and wanted to learn from Jian Mo, but because he opened the conversation box, where could he resist it? "Well, well, let me tell you something about my little uncle before..." Luo Xiaomi glanced. Jane Mo''s black pupil slipped a smile and nodded. Luo Xiaomi took Jian Mo to one side and did it under the umbrella. In due time, a servant had sent two shawls. After all, it''s still a little cold at night after it rains. "My uncle is the son of my grandfather..." Luo Xiaomi said, "I heard my mother say at that time that grandpa was very happy. I took him with me since I was a child and taught everything by his hand." Jian Mo seems to be able to imagine such a picture. An old man with a dull hand holding a child''s soft hand, with a kind smile in his mouth "My uncle is very smart. He can learn everything as soon as he learns. It can be imagined that what does grandpa like later?" Luo Xiaomi wrinkled his nose and said playfully, "anyway, I later inquired from my mother and all parties and came to a conclusion... That is, Grandpa only has little uncle in his eyes." Jane Mo smiled and felt that the little girl was jealous. "However, like my little uncle, I can''t hate it. It''s hard to dislike it..." Luo Xiaomi skimmed his mouth and fell into memory. "When I was a child, I liked watching my little uncle smile. I felt that when he smiled, the whole world was wonderful... Little aunt, really!" Luo Xiaomi''s eyes suddenly lit up, "my little uncle is good-looking. When he smiles, he is warm, but evil and charming..." Jane Mo continued to chuckle, thinking that the little girl might be ten years younger than Gu Beichen. What did she know at that time? "My uncle is a Xueba at school. You don''t know. He jumps grades and makes people crazy... Of course, this is what brother Xiao said." Luo Xiaomi looked envious and jealous, "anyway, the little uncle at that time was the most perfect avatar in everyone''s eyes. I don''t know how many people were chasing him!" The IQ is inherited by Jane Chapter 336 Jane Mo listens to Luo Xiaomi talking about Gu Beichen''s past Grandpa Gu is a leading businessman, and grandma Gu is one of the few female military commanders in the military region. Under the education of these two old people, Jian Mo can imagine his high spirited appearance at the beginning When a person gathers his self-cultivation and external conditions, he is doomed to a glorious life. "But why did he become what he is now?" Jane Mo looked at Luo Xiaomi suspiciously. Now Gu Beichen is decisive in business. Every year, because of the devouring of him and the emperor, I don''t know how many people go bankrupt and lose their jobs Such cold-blooded, and Luo Xiaomi''s mouth that love to help people, when do not know angry Gu Beichen, the difference is too big? Luo Xiaomi listened to Jian Mo mention this and subconsciously looked around. When he saw no one, he quietly said, "I said, don''t let your little uncle know, ha?" "Yes!" Jane nodded and was nervous by Luo Xiaomi. Luo Xiaomi swallowed it secretly and warned, "this matter is taboo in taking care of the family and can''t be mentioned..." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she became more and more curious, and all her emotions came up to her throat, as if she could break out of her mouth at the next moment. "Little uncle used to..." Luo Xiaomi swallowed nervously again, then lowered his voice and said the second half of the sentence solemnly, "... Kidnapped!" Jane Mo''s eyes widened in an instant, and her head was suddenly empty "How?" Jane Mo asked with some trembling. Luo Xiaomi broke his face and said angrily, "at that time, the family was the same as collapsed... Because the other party didn''t want money or anything, so he took his little uncle and disappeared." Jane Mo''s body has been shaking uncontrollably. The tragic moment after all kinds of rich people were kidnapped in the TV series flashed through her mind "My mother said that grandma used the relationship in the army, and grandpa also offered a reward..." Luo Xiaomi leaned his mouth, "but I just couldn''t find my little uncle." "And then?" Jane Mo''s nose is a little sour and her heart keeps twitching. "Later, my uncle''s friends saved him anyway, but where and how... No one knows except them and grandparents." Luo Xiaomi lay back on the seat and pulled his shawl. "Since then, my uncle has changed." Let a person change, or even subvert all the previous, what kind of changes can we do? Jane Mo''s heart aches. She doesn''t wonder what happened during that time. Since everyone doesn''t know, she estimates... It''s a kind of unspeakable pain. She just loves Gu Beichen Feeling Jane Mo''s sadness, Luo Xiaomi''s face suddenly changed, "little aunt, you have to hold on... You can''t let your little uncle see anything, or I''ll die!" Jane Mo couldn''t help being sad. "I knew I wouldn''t tell you... My mother will kill me!" Luo Xiaomi looked around for fear of being seen. Jane Mo tried to breathe deeply, so that she could suppress the sadness. "I''m sorry, I lost my temper." "Little aunt, you must love your little uncle very much?" Luo Xiaomi fanned his eyelashes. Although he was asking, he was obviously sure, "it''s good... I feel that my little uncle has a lot of temperature today." Jian Mo''s heart was still heavy. After being silent for a while, he slowly said: "the love between me and him is growing in love over time. After getting used to each other, he found that without each other in his life, he will no longer be complete..." Luo Xiaomi didn''t expect that Jian Mo would take the initiative to say that he brightened his eyes and quickly took out his mobile phone and transferred it to recording Jane Mo calmly took her cell phone and turned it off. "There''s nothing earth shaking between ah Chen and me, only a long stream of water... But I can guarantee that in this life, he''s the last man I''m excited about!" After that, Jian Mo returned the mobile phone to Luo Xiaomi, who was suffering from great joy and sorrow, and then got up The night was hazy, and the crescent moon finally pulled away the dark clouds and showed a hazy light. Jane Mo was immersed in the scene after Gu Beichen was kidnapped. She just felt cold all over her body The soft figure of Jane in the night. She stopped and looked at Gu Beichen who also came from the other end. The corners of her mouth gradually hooked up The past is a taboo for family. Does it mean that it is the darkness in the bottom of his heart that no one can touch? Chen, if only I knew you at that time? Can I be with you earlier and face it with you? Thinking, Jane Mo suddenly raised her step, and then trotted over. The whole person ran into Gu Beichen''s arms and tightly surrounded his waist. Gu Beichen was frightened by her sudden appearance, "what''s the matter?" "Nothing, just suddenly want to hug you..." Jane Mo shook her head on Gu Beichen''s chest. Gu Beichen''s deep sight suddenly became soft, and even the bottom of his eyes was filled with a smile. "Ah Chen..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen is light. Jane Mo chuckled her lips, listened to the strong heartbeat, and said angrily: "I just want to hug you, just want to call your name..." Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face lines became soft, "coquettish?" "Yes!" Jane moaned. Gu Beichen smiled at the corners of his mouth and hugged Jane Mo tightly, quietly feeling her dependence. Time hangs still, and the moonlight is as young as water. Chu Zixiao stood next to a tree and quietly looked at the two people embracing each other... Because the shadow of the tree covered his whole body. Jane Mo let go of Gu Beichen, looked up at him slightly, and fanned her eyes Gu Beichen looked down at her and knew that the little woman was thinking carefully at the moment, but he didn''t expose her... Just because this moment was too beautiful and soft for him to break. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo Chuo smiled at the corner of her mouth, as if nervous, "I love you until the end of my soul..." She expressed her affection. Just when Gu Beichen''s eyes turned into joy, Jane Mo slightly padded her toes and put her soft thin lips on her thin lips She took the initiative, even... Forgot the place at this moment, just wanted to tell Gu Beichen how much she loved him, and she wanted to accompany him through all the next years. Gu Beichen couldn''t stand Jian Mo''s affectionate initiative, but in an instant, he regained his dominance The big palm dragged the back of Jian Mo''s brain, and the other hand held Jian Mo''s slender waist and kissed her fiercely... As if to completely integrate the beauty of each other. At the same time, the souls of each other will be completely integrated with this kiss! Chu Zixiao''s eyes narrowed gradually. He looked at the two people kissing in front of him, forgetting themselves, and his eyes gradually became cold Turn around and leave Chapter 337 Chu Zixiao turned and left The two men who kissed each other did not notice the soft but heavy footsteps. Jian Heng looked at Chu Zixiao, who was kissing because Gu Beichen and Jian Mo hugged each other from a distance, and left sadly. The corners of his mouth gradually caught a faint smile. That kind of smile... Showed the Yin and prey under the cold charm! "See Xiaomo?" Jian truss greeted Chu Zixiao, "just saw Luo Xiaomi, didn''t you see Xiao Mo?" He frowned, "said he was coming this way..." Chu Zixiao glanced at Jian Chang and said coldly, "I didn''t expect you to have such an identity now... Do I want to call you a little uncle?" There was a cold breath in the sneering voice, as if it had just sent the depressed mood to Jian Chang. Jian Heng just smiled, "you care so much about the title, it seems... You don''t want Xiaomo to come back to you?" He shrugged. "It''s up to you... Anyway, it''s not bad for me." After the words fell, Jian Chang looked deeply at Chu Zixiao and turned to leave True and false can confuse people''s hearts most. Chu Zixiao has fallen into a whirlpool. He just needs a real villain. Jane stringer put on a cold smile at the corner of his mouth and walked in the direction of Gu Beichen and Jian mo... It was as if he really wanted to find Jian mo. Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Heng''s back. His words "caring about the title is equal to letting Jian Mo leave" instantly dyed his eyes and became scarlet Chu Zixiao suddenly clenched his hand, and the sound of "Gaga" bone dislocation echoed in the empty environment and became particularly strange. And the weird atmosphere is not just here... The leisure room of the villa is the same. "Impossible!" Gu Moyuan''s chess fell on the chessboard with a sound of surprise. "Elder brother..." Gu murhuai sighed, "can I lie to you?" Gu Moyuan''s breathing was a little unstable. When he thought of what happened that year, it seemed that he was in a trance "Brother, believe it or not..." Gu muhuai sighed softly and then said, "if you want to prove it, I can arrange for you to do DNA... I don''t even say it now, but accept him as a dry son..." Gu Moyuan''s eyebrows tightened, "I didn''t touch Su Mo in those years!" "Elder brother..." Gu muhuai sighed again. "Do you know that? You don''t know whether you touched it or not, do you?" Gu Moyuan was speechless Indeed, it was an accident. Afterwards, he and Sumer were inexplicable. The most fundamental problem is that they don''t know whether they have a relationship with each other. Gu Mo, don''t believe me more Even if he touches Sumer, even if Jian Chang''s age is really right However, if Su Mo really had his children, how could he marry Jane Zhanfeng? "Is it or not... It''s not clear if you make a comparison?" Gu mohuai sighed, "I''ll take the sample of Jian truss and make a comparison quietly." Gu mohuai looked at Gu Moyuan, his eyebrows and hearts had been together, and a trace of dark darkness suddenly slipped in his sight. Just for a moment, he returned to the gravity of worry. "It''s better to make yourself feel at ease... But my sister-in-law''s health is not good, so, brother, it should be carried out secretly." Gu Moyuan suddenly heard that Jian Heng might be his son, and suddenly had no idea At the end of that anniversary, everyone drank a lot. No one knows why he and Sumer were in the same bed. But when Lanxi found them, they slept together. But no one knows what happened The most important thing is that he has no impression of what he has done... Sumer is also honest that his body is not different. That could be a misunderstanding But now, Mo Huai tells him that Sumer''s son may be his son, and he is confused. "No matter what the result is, this matter can''t be known to Jian Heng..." Gu mohuai looked worried for Gu Moyuan. "If you look back, let him be my adopted son and call me my second uncle... Just make compensation for him silently!" As he spoke, Gu Mo Huai quickly slid across the bottom of his eyes, "but, brother... This paternity test still needs to be done." Gu Moyuan nodded, wrung his eyebrows and said, "don''t let your sister-in-law know about it." "I understand..." Gu murhuai nodded. "I''m tired. Let''s go today." Gu Moyuan''s breath congealed and said, "call me after you get the sample of Jian Chang. Let''s find a time..." "Good!" Gu mohuai responded, then got up, and went out of the leisure room with Gu mohuai one after another. Outside, Gu cizheng said something to Cen Lanxi. He saw two people go downstairs and get up. "Dad, second uncle..." CEN Lanxi looked back and his face was still bad. "Did mom and Beichen come back?" Gu Moyuan''s heart congealed, but he could only suppress the churning and asked Gu CI. "Aunt LAN accompanied grandma to the back vegetable garden," Gu CI said. "Grandma said that everyone would leave by themselves if they wanted to go." Grandma Gu doesn''t like the excitement since Grandpa Gu left In addition to Gu Beichen, he seldom takes the initiative to call anyone back for dinner. Today''s meal was supposed to show everyone her attitude. Jane Mo admitted it... In case these people lose face on their birthday. Since the attitude is over, the old lady naturally doesn''t want to face a group of people. "Old lady, this dish seems to be a little worm..." aunt LAN frowned and said. "Yes, if there are many dishes, there will be insects!" Grandma Gu sighed softly, "go back and ask Lao Wang to buy some medicine to cure insects." Aunt LAN couldn''t help laughing. "Old lady, you don''t seem to be talking about food?" Grandma Gu sighed deeply, went to the rattan chair and sat down. Looking at the lonely crescent moon of Mo Kong, she said slowly, "can I feel comfortable watching my son fight with my grandson?" Aunt LAN washed her hands with Xiaoqu and just said, "didn''t you say that children and grandchildren have children and grandchildren''s blessings..." after a pause, she asked, "but, old lady, who do you want to win?" "Can I help you manage or kiss..." Aunt Lan also sighed deeply. The old lady was once a powerful figure. What have you never seen? Besides, when people live to this age, they either indulge in the secular world or see through Obviously, the old lady is the latter. "Beichen is too bitter..." grandma Gu suddenly got up sadly. "It''s not easy to stand up. I won''t pull him. Who will?" Aunt Lan was silent. "Alan, you just heard..." grandma Gu''s eyes are a little red. "Beichen said, he fell down again, and I don''t know if he can stand up again!" Grandma Gu''s eyes were already glistening with tears, but her drooping eyelids covered her. "Jian Mo is his support pillar. Don''t let Beichen fall..." grandma Gu said with clear mind, "we must let Jian Mo stand!" Chapter 338 Jane Mo was kissed by Gu Beichen and her face was flushed. Because of her shyness, the whole person exuded a thrilling charm. "Let''s go..." Gu Beichen looked at Jane Mo''s pretty appearance. Her thin lips took her hand with a smile and said evil, "if this is not grandma''s territory, I''ll do you on the spot!" Jane Mo Chuo''s mouth was slightly swollen, and she said angrily with a smile, "it''s like your own territory, you can do me outside..." "People in the villa in the middle of the mountain have eyes." Gu Beichen spoke indifferently. Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and gouged out her eyes. Gu Beichen said, "obscene..." Gu Beichen suddenly stopped. Just when Jian Mo thought he would be angry, he suddenly leaned over to her ear and said magnetically and deeply: "I''m only dirty to my wife..." Then, just when he felt Jian Mo''s instantly red face, he got up and pretended to take her to the parking lot. Jane Mo was so red all the way and was pulled away by Gu Beichen. Her whole heart was sweet. Nothing in the past is important... What is important is that he will have her next to him, and she will always accompany him until he completely forgets the unhappy years. Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen and Jian Mo from a distance, as if they were in love. There were not too many expressions on Jun''s face... But the deep eyes made people unable to see to the end. "Zixiao, what are you looking at?" Gu CI came out of the room and looked forward curiously... He just saw a ray of light from the tail light of Gu Beichen''s car leaving, "Beichen and Xiao Jian are gone?" "Yes!" Chu Zixiao answered faintly, "I have a court tomorrow. I''ll go back to my apartment to deal with the case." He said and walked to the car. Gu CI frowned slightly and looked at Chu tianqin. "How do I think Zixiao is a little strange recently?" "I guess I won too much?" Chu tianqin said casually. Gu CI frowned as if something was wrong, but he couldn''t tell what was wrong "Guess?" Gu CI said, "come back and ask Shaochen for dinner. Don''t be estranged." "Shaochen''s temperament should not care." Chu Tian Qin glanced sideways at Gu Ci, and his heart turned to his son, "besides, they are both in Los Angeles now, and they are both criminal arguments, so it''s inevitable to meet." Gu CI sighed and didn''t speak. One after another, the villa, which was originally crowded with a large family, suddenly became quiet When Aunt LAN came back with grandma Gu, everyone had left. Standing in the living room, grandma Gu sighed and said slowly, "now the days are counted... After this birthday, there will be fewer days!" Aunt Lan was sad. "The old lady didn''t even see the young master, so she was willing to count?" Grandma Gu laughed, "let''s go and have a look secretly later... Otherwise, it''s a pity. The old man asked me later, what''s Beichen''s son like? I don''t know..." Jane Jie lay on the windowsill, his little hand under his chin, looking at the moonlight outside. "Xiao Jie, what are you looking at?" A child quietly got up from bed. Jian Jie didn''t look back, but there was a little sadness in his black pupil. "I thought I was looking forward to living on campus, but I found... I miss my stupid Mommy every night!" As soon as the children heard this, their eyes turned red, "I also want my father and mother... But even if I''m at home, I can''t see them!" Jane Jie looked back, then looked at the moonlight outside the window and didn''t speak. If Mommy knows that he thinks of her like this, she will be sad. I don''t know how to get excited Thinking that Jane Mo might have to hug him fiercely and proudly say "milk bag, I knew you loved me most", Jane Jie couldn''t help laughing. In the same moonlight, Jianjie thinks of Jianmo, who also holds her mobile phone and looks at Jianjie''s photos... From birth to the weekend. The sound of shower in the bathroom is very reassuring. Just as Jane Mo held her mobile phone and looked at the fat picture of Jane Jie when she was a child, Gu Beichen came out of the bathroom. "Ah..." Jane Mo wailed with joy and looked away at Gu Beichen. "Ah Chen, I found I fell in love with another man!" Gu Beichen wiped his wet hair. The eagle glanced at Jian Mo''s dry hair and frowned slightly. He took the hair dryer and said indifferently, "although it''s your son, I''ll be jealous!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "how do you know I''m talking about milk bags?" Gu Beichen''s eyebrow tail picked a confident and evil radian, "in this world, in addition to me and your son, which man can make you move?" "..." Jian Mo''s face stiffened in an instant. "Gu Beichen, can you be more narcissistic?" Gu Beichen said, "it''s not narcissism, it''s self-confidence..." then, he turned on the hair dryer and gently blew Jian Mo''s hair. Jian Mo lay on Gu Beichen''s leg, enjoying his service and appreciating the confident beautiful man. "I''ll blow it for you too..." Jane Mo suddenly got up after Gu Beichen blew it for her, took the hair dryer and motioned Gu Beichen to lie down. Gu Beichen chuckled and didn''t refuse. It''s just... The structure of a man''s body is different from that of a woman! Women lying on men''s legs can only enjoy service and appreciate beautiful men... But men can''t. As the hot wind of the hair dryer gently brushed his scalp, Jane Mo gently pulled his hair with her small hands, and the fragrance from her body came from her breath Gu Beichen''s body has already reacted, and the local position is unwilling to be lonely and wants to stick out his head. Jane Mo didn''t notice Gu Beichen''s reaction at all. She blew softly and said with a smile: "ah Chen, you''re so beautiful..." she grinned, "fortunately, I''m also very good-looking, ha ha!" Gu Beichen''s vision from bottom to top became deeper "I am also confident, not narcissistic!" Jane Morse shook her body, and her abdomen touched Gu Beichen''s cheek intentionally or unintentionally. Gu Beichen''s eyes became deeper and deeper, and the part expanded again His wife is in front of him. If he still bears it, he is not a man! Gu Beichen suddenly got up, took off the hair dryer in Jian Mo''s hand, threw it aside and crushed Jian Mo on the bed. Jane Mo''s eyes were as beautiful as silk. Her white arm hugged Gu Beichen''s neck, slightly raised her body and kissed him, "what do you want?" She asked deliberately. "What do you say?" Gu Beichen''s voice became hoarse because of the fanatical factors in his body. A pair of deep and bottomless ink pupils were even hotter, as if they were burning two fires at any time. Chapter 339 Jane morhu smiled, and suddenly made a sudden effort... He pushed Gu Beichen aside and pressed him. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo''s voice was bewitched. "Huh?" Gu Beichen narrowed his eyes and rolled his Adam''s apple up and down. Jian Mo''s slender and smooth fingers drew a circle at Gu Beichen''s clavicle. No matter what was arrogant against her, she asked angrily, "do you really want to?" "...." Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep. Is... His body not honest enough? Jane Mo looked at him and smiled deeply, "don''t you want to?" "..." Gu Beichen sighed softly, "Mo''er..." "Forget it if you don''t want to!" Jane Mo said and simply wanted to get up. However, when the talent moved, he was pulled back by Gu Beichen. Then, his low voice came through the helpless spoil, "think!" Jian Mo saw that Gu Beichen had no way to take her, and immediately became happy. He leaned over and pecked at the corner of his mouth, and then hurt on his throat knot rolling because of palpitation, "today, I''m on!" Gu Beichen suddenly became manic in his body. That kind of palpitation was just because of a tease from Jian mo. "Mo''er..." "Shh!" Jane Mo''s heart is beating like thunder. Although she has taken the initiative before, she doesn''t lose heart! She is still very nervous about going astray and kidney this time. "That..." Jane Mo suddenly found that she didn''t seem to know where to start, "... What should I do first?" Looking at Jian Mo, one second ago, he said he wanted to be on top, and the next second he didn''t know how to start... Gu Beichen was a little sad and laughing, but he was more excited. Because he saw the efforts made for him from the little woman''s eyes Gu Beichen turned over with Jian Mo''s shoulder blade and pressed her under her again. "Give you the first lesson and remember to learn well..." Gu Beichen said, just for a moment when Jian Mo was stunned, Jun''s face had bent down, and her thin lips captured her mouth that was about to open. In a moment, her lips and tongues were entangled together. The temperature in the bedroom gradually rose. When Gu Beichen pushed himself into the warm heat step by step, he said in a low voice in Jian Mo''s ear: "feel and learn... Next time, you''re on!" The heat spread gently on the skin beside Jian Mo''s ear with the words. It was crisp and numb. Coupled with the hot push, Jian Mo has completely given up learning At the moment, the only thing she can do is to cooperate with Gu Beichen to reach the palace of happiness step by step. "Mo''er, shall we have another one?" Gu Beichen spoke softly. Jane Mo''s eyes were as soft as silk, but she didn''t know whether to answer Gu Beichen''s question or because of the throbbing of her body and the instinctive overflow of her voice Gu Beichen worked harder and harder. It was his regret that Jian Jie missed four years. Now... He was sent to Spencer first for some reasons. In fact, he doesn''t want Jane Mo to get pregnant now... Because it''s not the time. Just, at this moment... That''s what he thought. I want to accompany her to have a child together. That process will be very happy. The night, after throwing all the seeds of fanaticism, gradually fell silent. Gu Beichen sleeps with Jian Mo in his arms, which is the most familiar and warm posture for each other. When the morning light tore the gloomy weather and spread lazily in every corner of Los Angeles... A new day came with new hope. "Husband, bye!" After Jane Mo kissed Gu Beichen on the face, she got out of the car with a smile in her mouth. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and drove away after entering the office building Susan leaned over his breakfast table and looked bored. "Tut Tut, have you been put in the cold palace?" Xiao Jing got up angrily. While opening the breakfast, he shook his head and said sadly, "Chen Shao has recently become a wife slave. My personal service is hung aside at any time... I''m out of favor!" Susan grabbed the pen and threw it at Xiao Jing. "You are a complaining woman!" Xiao Jing grabbed the pen quickly and said, "Chen Shao has been having fun picking up and seeing off his wife recently. I''m about to lose the driver''s salary. Can I not complain about my wife?" Susan squinted at Xiao Jing again and didn''t bother to talk to him. "Ding" came. When the elevator door opened, Gu Beichen came in with one hand. "Your master is coming, but he''s not going to serve?" Susan said with a teasing smile. Xiao Jing proudly glanced away. "Don''t you see I''m going to have breakfast?" "Xiao Jing..." Gu Beichen timely pushed open the door of the secretary room and shouted. "Alas!" Xiao Jing immediately answered the voice and got up, "Chen Shao!" "Inform JK that the meeting will be held in an hour!" Gu Beichen said and turned to the office. Xiao Jing hurried up, "go to JK?" "Yes!" After Gu Beichen answered, the man had entered the office. "Flattery..." Susan glanced at breakfast. "It''s true to have the ability to be arrogant all the time." Xiao Jing didn''t know that Susan disdained her behind her back. Just after receiving the just thought and notifying JK, he looked at Gu Beichen and said, "Chen Shao, what does the old lady think of Jane truss?" "Grandma doesn''t care about the company..." Gu Beichen glanced at Xiao Jing, then picked up the documents Susan had put on his desk to deal with, looked at them and signed them. After handling the emergency documents, Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing went to JK together Gu mohuai came back, and Jian Heng was in charge of JK unconsciously. He had to hurry up a lot of things. Shen Chu sat in Shen Hang''s office and returned to JK again. Her identity became the listing designer of the design department. "Your mother is not in good health recently. I want you to go back to the mansion. Why didn''t you go back?" Shen Hangzhi asked coldly. Shen Chu''s face was expressionless, but he just sneered, "with you, my mother doesn''t seem to need me very much." "What''s your attitude?" Shen Hangzhi immediately changed his face. Four years ago, Shen hang asked Shen Chu''s mother Luo yueman to come to Shen''s house on the condition that she reviewed Beichen''s side in an attempt to disrupt his plan to acquire JK. But later... JK was controlled by the emperor after all, and the Shen family''s industry went to the Gu family. Shen Chu''s return became meaningless. However, later, Shen Hangzhi asked Luo yueman to go back to Shen''s house, but he didn''t deserve to go back! Even so, Luo yueman is willing Sometimes, Shen Chu wondered, do women have to depend on men? If my mother wasn''t so like a dodder flower, she wouldn''t be so restrained by Shen Hangzhi Shen Chu clenched his teeth secretly, looked at Shen Hangzhi with beautiful eyes and asked coldly, "if dad wants me to do anything, just speak directly... Beat around the bush. I don''t think it''s suitable for our conversation." Shen Hang''s face darkened. He looked at Shen Chu and said in a deep voice, "wait, Gu Beichen will come to the meeting. You can find a way... Get his saliva sample or hair... Preferably blood!" Shen Chu frowned and asked subconsciously, "what are you doing?" Chapter 340 "You don''t need to know what to do..." Shen Hangzhi opened his mouth faintly, and there was evil in his sight. "Xiaochu, I think... This should be very simple for you?" Shen Chu looked at Shen Hangzhi and slightly pricked the corners of her mouth, as if she was tolerating something... After a few seconds, she clenched her gums and got up without promise or refusal. "I''ll go out first..." Shen Chu clenched his hand, then turned and left Shen Hangzhi''s office. Standing in the elevator, looking at himself reflected in the mirror, Shen Chu sneered at himself. She was once high spirited. Why is she like this now? With a Ding, the elevator arrived. The moment the elevator door opened, Shen Chu lifted his feet and walked out Just as she stepped out of the elevator, suddenly someone rushed in, and she stumbled back because of the impulse... Suddenly, her high-heeled shoes sprained. "Ah!" Shen Chu shouted in a panic. He was already unstable and fell to one side "Ah, sorry, sorry..." the man hurried to apologize and was about to help. Seeing that it was Shen Chu, he turned his eyes in an instant, and then reluctantly helped her up. Pain came from the ankle. Shen Chu pinched his hand and looked at the man who hit her. "Xie ran, don''t you even look when you walk?" Xie ran couldn''t stand glancing sideways. "Shen Chu, I''m going to send urgent documents upstairs... Don''t you know? Chen Shao is coming to the meeting. Who is responsible for the delay?" Shen Chu sneered, "I think you are in a hurry to see Gu Beichen?" Xie ran couldn''t stand it with a look of disdain in his eyes, so he smiled sarcastically and said, "yo... Shen Chu, who doesn''t know about you? I''m anxious to see Chen Shao. What''s the matter? I just appreciate handsome guys. How can I be like some people..." She paused deliberately, turned a white glance and continued to say sarcastically, "that''s to be a junior!" "Xie ran, who are you talking about?" Shen Chu coolly sinks his face. "Who answered me and said who..." Xie ran looked like ''I''m still afraid of you'', "Shen Chu, you failed to seduce Chen Shao four years ago and let JK change its master. Who doesn''t..." "Pa!" The crisp sound stopped Xie Ran''s words. She subconsciously covered the beaten cheek, stared at Shen Chu and roared, "Shen Chu, dare you hit me?" "What if I hit you?" Shen Chu sneered, "Xie ran, don''t you just rely on yourself to be Shen Tianyue''s fine woman? I Seduce Gu Beichen, which is better than some people. I take off my pants and lie down for money!" The words fell, and Shen Chu turned coldly and wanted to go But when she saw the man standing outside, her face suddenly changed. She and Xie ran were in a "quarrel". Unexpectedly, the elevator was pressed down. She didn''t know that she had stopped in the hall on the first floor at the moment Outside, Gu Beichen stood with his pocket in one hand, followed by Xiao Jing and several senior executives of JK. In addition to Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing, one is so indifferent and the other is always full of ruffian fun. The rest of them look very good. Xie ran didn''t expect the elevator to go down the first floor. At the moment, the whole face becomes very rich, just like a palette. After a moment of surprise, Shen Chu recovered his calm. No matter how much Gu Beichen heard, he just looked at Gu Beichen, walked out of the elevator with a proud step, and then crossed those people and left. "Chen... Chen Shao..." Xie ran swallowed in embarrassment and fear, trying to explain, "well, she... She''s talking nonsense, she slanders me!" "Does it have anything to do with me?" Gu Beichen said a indifferent question, coldly took back his sight and entered the elevator. Some executives have glared mercilessly, thanked ran, and then went in one after another. However, at the moment when the elevator door was closed, Gu Beichen inadvertently slid his sight over Shen Chu''s back, and his sight fell on her slightly turned foot. The elevator had been closed, blocking his sight. The meeting was long, boring and depressing. Such a meeting was expected by Shen Hangzhi It was almost noon when the meeting ended. After Gu Beichen said "break up", everyone''s heart finally fell on their chest after carrying it all morning However, we also know that the emperor will make big moves next. Either JK can rise in the wind and water, or he will be used as a gun envoy. Gu Beichen got up and went out, followed by Xiao Jing. "President Gu, let''s have lunch together?" Shen Hangzhi followed out and opened his mouth. "No..." Gu Beichen responded indifferently, and the eagle''s eyes were as quiet as water, which made people unable to see what was thinking in his heart. Shen Hangzhi seemed to have guessed that Gu Beichen would refuse, and kept a narrow smile on his face, "OK, make an appointment again when you have time!" Gu Beichen calmly turned and entered the elevator. At the moment when the elevator door was closed, he dialed Shen Chu''s phone "Hello?" Shen stood in front of the stairs with his arm up. "Have lunch together?" Gu Beichen asked. Shen Chu was silent. There was a complex emotion on his beautiful face, "OK!" "I''ll wait for you in the restaurant opposite!" Gu Beichen said something and hung up the phone. Then he made up a short message and sent it out. Jian Mo is discussing with everyone what to eat. When she sees Gu Beichen''s text message, she leaves her mouth: husband, is this stealing? Gu Beichen gently hooked the corner of his mouth: No, I''m aboveboard! "..." Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen playing Tai Chi with her and clenched his teeth secretly: is it particularly fragrant to eat with his first love? Gu Beichen frowned instantly and immediately exposed Jian Mo''s careful thought: why, do you still want to have dinner with Zixiao? Jane Mo smiled: who doesn''t have a first love? Gu Beichen sighed quietly. When the elevator arrived, he replied: I told you in advance. If you think you have to have a meal with Zixiao to make it even... I think it''s right for your little aunt and nephew to have dinner! When Jian Mo saw the message, she almost didn''t mention it at once. Can Gu Beichen have a degree of abdominal blackness? A text message leaves Shen Chu alone. There is no privacy. If she eats with Zixiao, it can''t be said to be her first love. It can only be the most common meal between the elders and the younger generation! "Sister Mo, what''s the matter with you?" Mu Xiaoran kept up with Jian mo after a little running. Seeing her gnashing her teeth while looking at her mobile phone, she asked. Jane Mo mercilessly pressed out the mobile phone, put it away, and said with gnashing teeth: "I want to eat an extra bowl of rice at noon..." "Ah?" Mu Xiaoran was confused by Jian Mo''s words. Jian Mo has recovered his calm. Looking at mu Xiaoran, he grinned, "it''s all right, I''m gaining weight!" "..." Mu Xiaoran twitched at the corners of his mouth and stopped in place. Looking at Jane Morse''s slender figure, as if she could be blown away by a strong wind, she said numbly, "it seems... It''s time to eat more!" Chapter 341 Shen Chu stepped into the restaurant and subconsciously looked around. "Hello, is that Miss Shen?" The waiter came over and asked with a smile. Shen Chu looked back at the waiter and nodded. "Please follow me..." the waiter politely waved his hand and walked forward. Shen Chu estimated that Gu Beichen had explained, so he followed the waiter. "Please come in..." the waiter opened the door of a box and closed the door again after Shen Chu entered. Gu Beichen was looking out of the window. Shen Chu came in without looking at it. It was like falling into his own world. Shen chuzhe his lower lip, took a deep breath, and just walked forward, "how can you remember to ask me to have dinner?" She sat down beside Gu Beichen. "Why, I''m not afraid of Jane Mo''s misunderstanding." "She won''t..." The gentle voice showed a thin smile, but that kind of smile made people jealous from the heart. Gu Beichen calmly took back his sight and smiled, "besides, I asked you to have dinner today, but I just met..." "Really?" Shen Chu sneered, "Gu Beichen, why don''t you just say that you pity me?" "Pity you, there''s no need..." Gu Beichen said indifferently without half an expression on his cold face. "You don''t need pity at the beginning of Shen." Shen Chu didn''t speak, but secretly clenched his hand. At the right time, there was a knock on the door. Then the waiter opened the door and put a few dishes on the table. Shen Chu hung his eyes and saw that they were all his favorite With a slight frown, Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen. Shen Chu didn''t understand what he was. The waiter who served the food withdrew. Shen Chu couldn''t help asking, "Gu Beichen, what do you want to do today?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes slightly picked a cold radian, looked at Shen Chu and said, "I just feel that when a person gives up his pride, it is equivalent to giving up himself." Shen Chu''s breath was a little hurried, and his eyelashes kept fanning, as if he were suppressing some emotion. She is Shen Hangzhi''s daughter, but the whole JK knows that Shen Hangzhi doesn''t treat her as her daughter Such people are often very sad. To some extent, they are not as good as an ordinary employee. She was proud of Shen Chu since childhood, but she crushed all her pride for a mother. "Gu Beichen, what identity do you use to say this to me?" Shen Chu sneered, grinned at the corners of his mouth and said, "don''t you think it''s ridiculous for you to tell me this now?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, and even his face didn''t change. In fact, it''s not necessary to be cold Gu Beichen astringed his eyes, took the teacup in front of him and drank. When he put it down, he said faintly: "if it''s not Shaochen''s persistence... It''s really unnecessary!" As soon as Shen Chu heard this, his breath suddenly became thick She bit her teeth, narrowed her eyes gradually, and finally fell on the teacup put down by Gu Beichen, "for Mo Shaochen, I think... You are more unnecessary!" She glanced at Gu Beichen. "Gu Beichen, you should be as cruel as four years ago... For Jian Mo, you directly cut off all my roads!" Shen Chu sneered, "what savior are you pretending to be now?" She said, "put away your false compassion. It will only make me think you have changed because of Jane mo. on the contrary, it makes me feel sick!" Gu Beichen looked at Shen Chu, who was covered with thorns. He didn''t look at what she said, but slowly opened his mouth: "if I say, as for what you will do, it''s your nature..." Calmly, Gu Beichen got up and wanted to leave with a steady step "Beichen!" Shen Chu suddenly shouted. Gu Beichen stopped and turned to look at her Shen Chu suddenly got up. While Gu Beichen frowned slightly, people rushed up. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed in an instant, and subconsciously wanted to get out of the way However, Shen Chu was full of thoughts, and she still hugged her. "Let go!" Gu Beichen opened his mouth coldly, and his voice was as cold as ice. Shen Chu didn''t let go, and even suddenly stood on tiptoe to kiss Gu Beichen Where can Gu Beichen let her meet? Although his body was tightly dragged by Shen Chu''s hand, his face had been aside. Shen Chu didn''t succeed. However, because of his big action, his hand was supposed to help Gu Beichen''s shoulder, but as soon as he let go, his hand caught his hair. Big Zhang grabbed Shen Chu''s shoulder blade, and Gu Beichen pushed Shen Chu away without pity "You continue to base yourself..." Gu Beichen has a cold face. "Shen Chu, in the end, don''t let me look down on you while I''m disappointed with you." Coldly looking back, Gu Beichen turned around and left the box without stopping. If it weren''t for Shaochen, there wouldn''t be this meal at all No matter what kind of identity Shen Chu exists in JK now, it''s the way she wants to go, and no one can interfere. Shen Chu stood where he was, his eyes hanging still After a long time, she slowly lowered her eyes and raised her hand. White and slender fingers, with dark hair, are very small, but they are particularly eye-catching. Shen Chu bit his teeth and carefully picked up his hair The sunlight refracted in and fell on the hair, instantly plating a halo. After watching for a while, Shen Chu stopped and turned around... His sight finally fell on the water cup Gu Beichen drank. Although she didn''t know what Shen Hangzhi wanted to do, she seemed to be able to guess Saliva, hair or blood... As if to make DNA? Why did dad make DNA for Beichen? Isn''t Beichen Gu Moyuan''s son? Thinking like this, Shen Chu pinched his fingers with hair more tightly, and his heart beat faster because of inexplicable tension. The ringing of the mobile phone rang suddenly, as if it had strained Shen Chu''s nerves at this moment. She suddenly regained her mind. First, she looked at the hair held in her eyes, and then took out her mobile phone with her other hand Seeing that it was Shen Hangzhi''s, Shen chuzhe glanced at the lower lip corner, looked at the water cup Gu Beichen had drunk, and then answered the phone He took a deep breath. Shen Chu tried to keep himself calm, and then shouted, "Dad!" "Where is it?" There was indifference in Shen Hangzhi''s voice. Shen Chu bit his teeth. "Eat out and go back later." "Is it with Gu Beichen?" Shen Hangzhi asked. Shen Chu just answered gently, "HMM." Shen Hang''s sight deepened slightly. Shen Chu and Gu Beichen were eating opposite. He knew... Gu Beichen had just left, and he knew it. He just asked, just to know if Shen Chu would lie. "Since we have dinner together..." Shen Hangzhi said slowly, "have you got what I asked you to take?" Chapter 342 Shen Chu stared at the cup that Gu Beichen had drunk, and his fingers pinched his hair. Gradually, a suffocating breath filled his body. Shen Hangzhi frowned slightly, "why, haven''t you finished?" When he asked this, Shen Chu had already determined that she and Gu Beichen were eating here, and even that others had left... Dad knew. So, just after Beichen left the restaurant, Dad''s phone arrived. Shen Chu kept breathing deeply. Because of her tangled thoughts, her chest rose and fell Or go back with your hair and the cup Gu Beichen drank Or Shen Chu''s body began to tremble. Obviously, she should take back what her father wanted. After all, if Beichen is not Gu Moyuan''s son, does Jian Mo not necessarily like him? Hehe What shit love? What Jian Mo sees is not everything brought by Beichen''s identity and money? The bottom of Shen Chu''s eyes was already filled with hate, which was mixed with thoughts that were so complex that she couldn''t understand it. "He didn''t drink water..." When Shen Chu gritted his teeth and said this sentence, he found that he seemed to have been evacuated. "Even..." Shen Chu pressed down his tumbling emotion, "he left without even moving his chopsticks." Shen Hang''s eyes suddenly gathered and asked fiercely, "didn''t you think of a way?" Shen Chu sneered, "Dad, don''t tell me. You don''t know that Gu Beichen left soon after I came in..." Hearing this, Shen Hang''s face fell coldly, and then hung up without saying anything. Listening to the "beep beep" hanging up sound from the mobile phone, Shen Chu pulled down the corner of his mouth and slowly put down his mobile phone At the right time, the hair originally caught between the fingers also slowly fell on the floor. Shen Chu stood there. I don''t know how long it took. Her body was stiff after a long time. The self mockery at the corners of the mouth gradually spread, from the face to the fundus of the eyes Shen Chu walked forward weakly, pulled the napkin and paused... Then grabbed the cup Gu Beichen had drunk and rubbed it hard, as if only in this way could she dispel her unwilling thoughts. ¡­¡­ Jian Mo and Andy went to the construction site of the Convention and Exhibition Center. After finalizing the design scheme with the construction party for the last time, it was almost time to get off work. "Jane, why haven''t I seen you pick up little Jemi lately?" Andy asked curiously. Jane Mo didn''t explain, but said, "Andy, can you promise me one thing?" "What?" Andy asked suspiciously. After thinking for a while, Jane said, "don''t let others know that Jemi exists..." "Why?" Andy is even more puzzled. Jane Mo was trying to tell him how to make it clear. Finally, she found that the matter was too complicated to explain clearly. She could only say: "China and your customs and cultures are different. It''s not good for me to marry Gu Beichen with a child..." Andy immediately rolled his eyes, "so I said, you shouldn''t marry Gu Beichen! If it were me, I wouldn''t mind the existence of little Jemi..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "I just want to know, can you promise me?" Andy''s blue eyes reflected Jane Mo begging. Suddenly, he had no resistance and hurried to say, "OK, OK, I promise you..." Jane smiled, "thank you!" "It seems that the most you say to me is'' thank you ''!" Andy drooped his shoulders discontentedly and said sadly, "if only he could replace it." Jane Mo smiled, "for what?" "For example... I love you! I like you! I like you very much..." "..." when Jane Mo heard this, she suddenly turned around and said, "go, fantasy boy!" Andy shrugged and followed Jane Mo''s footsteps with a smile on his face. At the right time, behind the tree on one side, a figure came out slowly. Shen Hao looked at Jian Mo''s back and frowned slightly. Then he took out the cigarette and lit it The foreigner said that little Jemi is Jian Mo''s child. Does that mean... It should be Gu Beichen''s? Thinking like this, Shen Hao took another puff of smoke and vomited out the smoke. At the same time, his sight also became deep and dangerous under the evil cold. Just after Jane and Andy arrived at the company, Gu Beichen''s phone arrived. "Boss long is back. Let''s go together in the evening?" Gu Beichen asked softly. "Well..." Jane answered. After the rapid development of the relationship between the two people, Lin Nan and Li Yunze understood and met. However, the Dragon owl hasn''t met each other because he hasn''t been in Los Angeles. Jane Mo got into the car and looked at her ol dress. Because she had just gone to the construction site, she felt a little gray. She couldn''t help frowning and asked, "do I want to go back and change my clothes first?" Gu Beichen slightly hooked his lips, "it''s not to see your parents. What are you nervous about?" Jane Mo tilted her eyes and looked at Beichen. "You care about him so much. I just don''t want to be rude." "You know?" Gu Beichen''s sight suddenly became deep and condensed his eyes. "Know what?" Jane Mo was asked instead. Gu Beichen lightly narrowed his eagle eyes, "I care about him..." Jane Mo smiled. "I know at a glance! You treat Lin Nanan like your brother, and Li Yunze is a man who can talk about a lot of things... But you respect the Dragon owl. Um..." she tilted her head and said, "it''s like the worship of big brother, so respect." Listening to Jane Mo''s analysis, Gu Beichen gently pulled her hand and held it in his palm He didn''t expect that when she met with the Dragon boss, she found out how he felt for them. "Am I right?" Jane Mo asked pleasantly. "Well..." Gu Beichen answered softly, "Yunze and I grew up together and our two families are friends. Nanna saved him unintentionally and later played together..." "What about the Dragon owl?" Jane Mo asked curiously. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo in his eyes, and a strange emotion slipped through the bottom of his eyes However, because it was too fast, Jane Mo didn''t find it. "He..." Gu Beichen paused, as if thinking about how to say, "it''s estimated that his world is too lonely. Would you like to find someone to accompany him occasionally? At that time... I appeared!" Gu Beichen said that the clouds were light and the wind was light, but Jian Mo felt that they should not be so simple. However, she didn''t ask The friendship between men and women is also different. Sometimes when you feel that the other party is in line with your appetite, or if you have some similarities with yourself, you can become close friends in an instant. However, when Jian Mo knew how Gu Beichen and the Dragon owl knew the truth... She secretly blamed herself. At that time, why couldn''t she be more careful? Chapter 343 There was a lot of noise in devil''s kiss. The harsh sound of heavy metal music fell on people''s heart like drums. Every time, it made the nerves jump. In the smoky bar, red men and green women release themselves heartily. Here, you can find the wildest yourself. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and passed through the crowd indifferently, as if everything here had nothing to do with him and didn''t affect him at all. Remembering the scene of last visit to devil''skiss, Jian Mo subconsciously glanced at the other end of the box. There was astringent but also a vague smile in it Between her and ah Chen, is that the fate that has been doomed since that rainy night? So, after that night, she can marry him Just thinking, Jian Mo''s body was suddenly taken into Gu Beichen''s arms. She suddenly looked back at him with doubts in her eyes. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "what are you thinking?" His voice pierced through the heavy metal in his ear, and the music sounded helplessly, "don''t look at the road!" Jane Mo looked sideways... If she just walked straight like that, she would have to hit the post. With a grin, Jane Mo gently pulled off Gu Beichen''s clothes. Gu Beichen was helpless at the corners of his mouth, but there was a spoiled sigh in the depths of his ink pupil. He took Jian Mo upstairs In the dark corner, Shen Hao is holding a beer in his hand and leaning on the railing. His eyes are moving with Gu Beichen and Jian Mo''s footsteps "Brother Hao," at the right time, a little brother ran over, "the goods have arrived!" Shen Hao regained his consciousness. The man immediately recovered his indifference and got up. Then he put the wine on the high table aside and stepped to the box "There''s such a place here..." Jian Mo looked curiously at the environment that was completely incompatible with the atmosphere of the bar below. The dark but simple decoration was depressing. However, a door blocked all the noise and could not see that there was a heavy metal bar downstairs. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo to walk through the corridor and said faintly, "when boss long was in Los Angeles, most of them lived here." Jane Mo frowned slightly, with a strange look on her face On the noisy bar, she used sound insulation to isolate such a quiet space... Such an extreme approach made her curious about the Dragon owl. "Chen Shao..." At the end of the corridor, several men and women stood and shouted respectfully when they saw Gu Beichen and Jian Mo coming. Gu Beichen nodded slightly, "Xiao Jing didn''t come?" Xiao Nan shrugged. "Erjing said that the things you told him have not been done yet..." he said and smiled, "but it should be fast." Gu Beichen nodded, then pulled Jane Mo into the inner room. Jian Mo subconsciously looked back at Xiao Nan. She happened to look at her too. At the moment when their eyes collided, they couldn''t help laughing "Elder sister, does the young wife Chen seem to have a good impression on you?" Xiao forced Xiao Nan and grinned. Xiao Nan glanced at him, "who doesn''t like me?" "The person you killed..." Xiao Qiang said seriously. Xiao Nan smiled, very seductive, put her hand on Xiao Qiang, and slowly approached with a slight breath Sister Xiao, you are the most beautiful woman in the world. Have you swallowed the bitterest face in the world "Fuck, I heard cockroaches disgusting when I came here!" Xiao Jing''s voice came in time. Xiao Qiang immediately blew his hair, "Erjing, are you calling me a cockroach to try?" "You can make your voice louder..." Xiao Nan''s ears were ''buzzing'' by Xiao Qiang''s roaring voice. "When brother Xiao comes out, I think you will wilt." Xiao Jing and the two men who didn''t speak laughed. One by one, they looked at Xiao Qiang''s face and laughed Suddenly, Xiao Qiang realized that he had been fooled. Those outside are having a good time, and Xiao Jing can get together with everyone occasionally. As soon as others arrive, they immediately fight together Xiao Jing and his companions went to another room playfully. Compared with their madness, it was obvious that the Dragon owl was much quieter. Jane Mo thinks she is definitely a pediatrician compared with the Dragon owl. The dish made by dragon owl is not a dish, but a handicraft Jian Mo looked at the dishes on the table and had only one feeling... The Dragon owl must have some quirks. No one makes Chinese dishes at home, which is more exquisite than hotels After dinner, in addition to seeing the Dragon owl''s ability to cook, Jian Mo was surprised by his action of mixing wine. In her cognition, bartenders are loose and evil... But can you imagine that a person can mix a glass of wine without any expression on his face? The most important thing is that you won''t feel very strange, but at that moment, you think that dragon owl is the highest state of wine mixing. "Welcome..." Long Xiao put a glass of wine blending from light yellow to orange in front of Jian Mo and said indifferently, "I hope you can become the sunshine of Beichen!" Jane Mo''s heartbeat suddenly missed a beat. She looked up from the bartender and looked at the Dragon owl. She was inexplicably suffocating. That feeling made her very uncomfortable. "Tut Tut, boss long, you are treating differently..." Li Yunze shook his head dissatisfied with playing with a knife in his hand. The Dragon owl looked at him indifferently, "when you officially bring a woman here, I''m also welcome!" Jian Mo subconsciously looked at Gu Beichen. Now she knew that only the closest people around her could come here. Gu Beichen''s eyes shone with Jian Mo and gradually deepened. His hand gently took her, and his thick finger belly rubbed the place where she was wearing the ring... Everything was silent. The Dragon owl mixed a glass of wine for several people before washing his hands. Li Yunze drank his own cup. At the moment of entering his mouth, the spicy stimulated his taste buds and made him frown, "why did you delay so long this time?" The Dragon owl looked at him and said calmly, "something happened..." "Huh?" Li Yunze is curious. Nannan and Beichen were injured. Boss long had planned to come back, but he was delayed That time, all the people came to Los Angeles and went back on the way. This has never happened before. The Dragon owl looked at Gu Beichen indifferently, then avoided the important and said: "someone stopped me from returning to Los Angeles. At present, it has something to do with warmth, but I''m afraid it''s not that simple." Gu Beichen and Li Yunze looked at each other, then frowned at the Dragon owl, "what''s going on?" "Someone broke the rules of the game..." the Dragon owl said gently. "It''s circulating in the dark world. There''s a drug called ''silence'' on the market." Chapter 344 ¡°Silence£¿¡± Li Yunze was stunned. "What the hell is that?" The Dragon owl looked at him coldly and his eyes fell on Gu Beichen. "What do you think?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak. He just looked down at the blue diamond ring on Jian Mo''s finger. The belly of his thumb slipped gently, and then he opened his mouth: "there are few people in the world who like to give poison such a name..." Then he slowly raised his eyes and looked up at the Dragon Owl... At that moment, the depths of the eagle''s eyes were already gloomy. The Dragon owl didn''t change his expression. He was indifferent from beginning to end, as if nothing in the world could arouse his emotion. Jian Mo felt Gu Beichen''s breath and looked at him slightly. The position of his heart gradually tightened up. Devil ''skiss is not clean, which has almost become a secret known to many people. However, listening to them talking about poison, Jane Mo was still a palpitation in her heart. Was ah Chen injected with poison when he was kidnapped? Such an idea made Jane Mo feel terrible for a moment. How could she think so? The Dragon owl picked up the wine cup and took a shallow sip. He said faintly, "I can''t find it, it''s not necessarily him!" Gu Beichen was silent, and the corners of his mouth slowly wiped. If there was a sneer like nothing... That smile had an emotion that no one could understand. Li Yunze frowned slightly. He didn''t understand why the Dragon owl mentioned Shi Shaoqin vaguely now After all, Jane Mo is still there? "I''ll pay attention..." Gu Beichen said faintly, and his calm had been restored. The Dragon Owl "um" made a sound, didn''t say anything, and changed the topic. Feeling something wrong with Jian Mo, Gu Beichen slightly hooked up the corner of his mouth and asked with a smile, "what''s the matter?" His world has not been clean since he was kidnapped... It is full of filth in the dark. He wants Jane Mo to accept everything he has, good and bad! Li Yunze and long Xiao''s eyes also fell on Jian Mo, one worried and the other cold. But no doubt, I was thinking about how Jane Mo would treat them at the moment, talking about poison products so lightly. "It''s all right..." Jane Mo shook her head with a smile and pressed down her heartache for Gu Beichen. "Just thinking, you talk about this in front of me... Are not afraid of my incompetence?" Li Yunze smiled first. "It''s all right. With me as a doctor, even if you can''t stand the stimulation, there should be no accident." At last, his voice suddenly looked back at Gu Beichen, and his fierce eyes gradually decreased. He''s just kidding. Should he be so cold-blooded and ruthless? Li Yunze secretly feigned: there are women without brothers! Jane Mo felt the feelings between them and smiled at the corners of her eyes splendid! During those hard years, ah Chen had several of them with him. The sweet piano music interrupted Jane Mo''s thoughts. She took out her mobile phone and looked at the caller ID, frowning. Jane moped her lips and cut off the phone. But before I put it in my bag, it rang again Gu Beichen and they all looked at Jian mo. she frowned and cut off the phone... Then she turned off her mobile phone directly. Chu Zixiao, with a gloomy face, dialed the phone again. When he heard a mechanical and sweet voice suggesting that the other party had turned off, his hand holding the mobile phone gradually used force. The night wind was blowing and swaying, and the branches were staggering. Chu Zixiao was standing by the river of Los Angeles. The wind made his hair a little messy, but he still couldn''t hinder his temperament. Han Zhenzhen stood on it and looked at Chu Zixiao. His eyes were distressed and unwilling She went down, gritted her teeth and asked, "Zixiao, is Jane Mo really worth it?" She worked so hard to help him win the lawsuit, but just now she knew that he would finally use that information, not to win Mo Shaochen, but to keep the party! The most important thing is that he did all this for Jane mo Chu Zixiao''s eyes condensed the dark breath and glanced at Han Zhenzhen. "Why are you here?" "I ask you, is it a Jane Mo, you can give up all principles for her?" Han Zhenzhen gritted his teeth and asked. Chu Zixiao didn''t return to her immediately, but his sight was getting darker and darker. Like the ink night with strong wind at the moment, it was cold everywhere, "principle?" He said softly, "I can give up everything for her!" Then he withdrew his sight indifferently, turned and walked to the position of the car. Han Zhenzhen looked unbelievably at Chu Zixiao''s back when he left. Chu Zixiao, who was gentle, evil and spirited in school, just at that moment... Why did she see the cold murderous spirit? "Chu Zixiao, are you going to destroy yourself for Jane Mo?" Han Zhenzhen roared at Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao didn''t stop, but got on the bus with a cold face. Holding the steering wheel with one hand and driving the car forward No purpose, just let the mobile phone redial automatically. "Hello, the phone you dialed has been turned off. If you need to leave a message, please leave a message after the ''beep''." "Mo Mo, if you had the same love for me and you as you did for Beichen, wouldn''t the ending be different today?" Chu Zixiao stopped the car on the empty suburban road, and slowly opened his mouth without any expression on his face. "I''ve been thinking about this problem these two days. I told myself to let go, but finally found that I can''t let go at all." A slight electric current came from the mobile phone. The sound was like an insect gnawing at Chu Zixiao''s nerve "Obviously, I met you first and fell in love with you first. Why did I leave in the end?" Chu Zixiao said, his sight was already gloomy, "everything is not my fault, isn''t it?" The electric current sound in silence is the only one that can respond to Chu Zixiao at the moment. The depressed atmosphere in the congealed carriage tightens him to a point. "Mo Mo..." Chu Zixiao endured and finally opened his mouth, "I want... To take you back!" Jian Mo was a little uneasy after Chu Zixiao''s phone call, and her body was even more anxious. "Mo''er and I left first..." Gu Beichen felt Jian Mo''s discomfort and spoke faintly. The Dragon owl nodded slightly, "I''m afraid I''ll stay in Los Angeles soon." "OK..." Gu Beichen answered and left with Jian Mo without saying anything more. There were only dragon owl and Li Yunze left in the room, and the atmosphere suddenly became a little tense. "The boss has something to say?" Li Yunze wanted to go with Gu Beichen just now, but the Dragon owl stopped it. The Dragon owl rose and went to the back of the bar. He opened the fridge and pulled out a foam box. "Here is a sample of Silence. You can take it back and study it and see if it can be untied." He frowned slightly and said heavily, "although it''s not clear where it was made, I suspect that Shi Shaoqin made it for Beichen." As soon as Li Yunze heard this, his face suddenly became dignified Chapter 345 After taking a bath, Jane Mo sat on the bed and turned on her mobile phone. When she saw the text message reminding her that there were more than 50 missed calls, her whole eyebrows were tied together. The sound of "Di" came as a voice message. Jian Mo looks at Chu Zixiao''s number and thinks whether to open it Subconsciously, Jian Mo looked in the direction of the bathroom... The sound of a shower came from inside. Gu Beichen''s figure was reflected on the frosted glass door by the light. Jane Mo took back her sight and wondered whether to listen or delete it directly? After biting her teeth, Jane Mo still clicked the delete button However, when she saw whether to confirm or cancel, she hesitated again. The words Li Xiaoyue said to her slipped through her mind. Jian Mo''s face became more and more dignified. Finally, she took the earphone to listen However, when Chu Zixiao''s sinister voice echoed in his ears, Jane Mo frowned "Mo Mo... I''ll take you back!" Jane Mo''s heart suddenly ''cluttered'', but instinctively, she quickly cut off the voice message. Her breathing was a little short. That feeling made her heart urgent. The door of the bathroom was suddenly opened, and Jane Mo''s frightened body trembled. Then the mobile phone slipped from her hand and fell on the floor with her headset. Gu Beichen frowned slightly at Jian Mo''s panic, and looked at the mobile phone on the ground. Jane Mo hurriedly bent over to pick it up. "Just thinking about something, you surprised me as soon as you came out..." she said with a frozen voice. Gu Beichen didn''t ask much, but answered softly. At night, Jane Mo''s mood has been a little heavy. Gu Beichen didn''t pierce her, but stroked her arm with his big palm in an attempt to calm her down. Until Jian Mo fell asleep for a long time, Gu Beichen''s eyes fell on her mobile phone through the darkness. At night, at the Dragon owl''s place, the phone rang and she was restless from the beginning. Although she tried her best to cover up, he still felt it. Just now, she was obviously frightened when she saw him coming out She gently pulled out her arm, and Jian Mo made some uneasy cries. Gu Beichen comforted and gently kissed her on the forehead Xu Shi felt the familiar breath in his sleep, and Jian Mo gradually fell asleep again. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s mobile phone, opened it and saw that all the missed calls were from Chu Zixiao. He couldn''t help but look a little deeper When he saw the voice message, he glanced at Jian Mo and took the headset. Listening to Chu Zixiao''s voice, Gu Beichen''s eyebrows tightened. Turn off the mobile phone, Gu Beichen returns the mobile phone to the distance, lies down next to Jian Mo, and then gently takes her into his arms The lips fell gently on the top of her hair. If love can be compared, it is not love. Zixiao wants her back? Gu Beichen''s eyes are cold... Now in this world, he can let everything, except Jian Mo, which is impossible! ¡­¡­ Gu mohuai sat on the sofa by the window of the hotel, with red wine and wine glasses on the small table next to him. The wind outside is so strong that the whole world is immersed in the wind of "Wuwu", just like a ghost barking. The sound of vibration came from the mobile phone. Gu mohuai picked it up. The caller ID is an abstract pattern of a bird. Gu mohuai picked it up, "Hello!" "The little Lord still said that he would not interfere in the affairs between you and Gu Beichen." On the other side of the phone came the processed mechanical voice, "in addition, after many years of cooperation, I remind you... The little Lord is angry that you don''t understand his meaning." Gu mohuai narrowed his eyes slightly, and there was a sneer in his fierce eyes, but his voice said calmly: "is it a cooperative relationship? Is the ink palace too cold? Besides... I won''t lose money." A sneer came from the mechanical voice, "do you think the ink palace is short of money?" He scoffed, "give you advice. If you still try to annoy the little Lord... I can only give you a ''take care of yourself''." When the words fell, the other party hung up the phone indifferently without waiting for Gu mohuai to speak. Gu muhuai twitched the corners of his mouth with a sneer and slowly put down his hand. His vision became deep and dark... Vaguely, there was an incomprehensible excitement. Such excitement is not like human beings... It''s like a wild beast, ready to destroy what it can at any time. After a moment, Gu muhuai recovered his calm, and the corner of his mouth was hooked with his always warm smile. He picked up his cell phone and dialed a group of numbers Shen Hangzhi just finished his entertainment and entered the villa. His mobile phone rang. Seeing that it was Gu mohuai, he hurried to pick it up. "Have you got anything?" Gu muhuai asked. "Not yet..." Shen Hangzhi frowned. "You know, Gu Beichen is hard to deal with now." "Why, doesn''t he even drink a mouthful of water when he goes to the meeting?" Gu mohuai asked coldly. Shen Hangzhi sighed, "really didn''t drink..." then he went to the study. When he went up the stairs, he didn''t find Shen Chu at the bottom of the stairs. "Shen Chu could have had a chance, but he didn''t get it in the end." Gu mohuai snorted coldly. "In fact, you should have a chance... After all, you..." Shen Hangzhi''s voice grew farther and farther away, and finally disappeared into the closed door study. Shen Chu came out from under the stairs and looked up at the location of the study Who is Dad talking to? What is the purpose of Beichen''s sample? Shen Chu wanted to go upstairs to listen, but he immediately gave up his idea. Turn around and leave quietly When someone slipped out of the Shen family villa in his car, Shen Chu wanted to call Mo Shaochen to ask about the situation, but on second thought, he felt it was inappropriate and simply gave up. The next day, after a windy night in Los Angeles, the weather became gloomy again. In summer, the weather in Los Angeles becomes changeable. Gu muhuai stood in front of the imperial building and looked up slightly The sight fell on the emperor''s logo because the reflection reflected a dazzling light. Gu mohuai slightly hooked a sinister arc around the corner of his mouth, slowly converged his sight, stepped in and walked in ''ding ''came, and the door slowly opened when the elevator reached the top floor Gu muhuai stepped out. Even after six years, he is still familiar with all the layout here. Susan came out and saw Gu muhuai. She was secretly surprised, but her face was slightly crooked. "When did the second master come back?" Gu mohuai chuckled, "why, I''m back... Beichen didn''t tell you?" Susan smiled calmly. "The second master is really joking... Chen Shao can only talk about business with my secretary. How can he talk about private affairs?" Gu muhuai nodded reasonably, but his heart hummed coldly Gu Beichen''s left and right hands, a Xiao Jing and a Susan, are not fuel-efficient lamps. "Is Beichen there?" Gu muhuai asked knowingly. "Chen Shao is in a meeting," Susan said calmly. "The second master will sit in the lounge for a while and I''ll make you a cup of coffee." "No need..." Gu muhuai said coldly, "I''ll just go to his office and wait." Without waiting for Susan to speak, he turned and walked to Gu Beichen''s office (ask for a monthly ticket at the beginning of the new moon!) Chapter 346 Susan frowned and walked quickly. Just as Gu muhuai was about to reach the door, she stopped the doorknob, "second master, I''m afraid it''s not suitable..." "What''s wrong?" Gu mohuai immediately sank his face. Susan smiled and acted like a secretary. "Second master, please..." she gestured and didn''t say much. There are many confidential documents in the office. Gu mohuai, as chenshao''s sworn enemy, how can she let him alone in chenshao''s office? After Gu mohuai looked at Susan coldly, the corners of his mouth gradually smiled, and the depths of his eyes slipped coldly. "Sure enough..." Gu murhuai said quietly, and then turned to the lounge. Susan breathed out secretly. In fact, she was quite afraid of Gu mohuai''s tough decision to enter the office. After making coffee for Gu mohuai, Susan didn''t accompany her in the lounge. When she came out, she sent a text message to Xiao Jing "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing leaned forward and handed Gu Beichen his mobile phone. After Gu Beichen looked at it, he continued the meeting without changing his face... Tomorrow is the shareholders'' meeting, and the second uncle will come today. He is not surprised. The emperor is dignified, and Xiangyu is obviously much more relaxed and pleasant. This quarter, the architectural design department reached a new high. Yu Ziyun generously invited everyone to play in the evening. "Go to heaven night?" It was proposed. "I''d better go to the emperor''s Club... I haven''t been there since it was built!" "But it''s membership. Can''t we get in?" Someone frowned. "Have you forgotten?" Mo Xiaoya has hugged Jian Mo, "with Mo Mo, that''s the member!" At this time, everyone suddenly reacted and was very excited "Did you see your design when you came back?" Mo Xiaoya asked at the right time. Jane Mo shrugged and shook her head. "I''ve been fooling around all day. I really haven''t seen it." "Then the emperor''s club is good..." Tang Haoyang made a decision. "Xiao Jian, you can make a specific decision." Jane Mo looked at the design department and looked forward to it excitedly. She didn''t want to sweep everyone''s sex. She nodded, "OK!" "Wow, sister Mo, great..." he clapped his hand excitedly at night. Mu Xiaoran is obviously much quieter. "Sister Mo, I especially like the design of your club. It''s nice to see it on the spot today..." "Tut Tut," Jane Mo pretended to be helpless, "you''re directly asking for the 18th floor... It''s too dark! Sister Xiaojing has to check president Yu''s account when she turns back." As soon as they heard this, they couldn''t help laughing Jian Mo turned back to the office, took his mobile phone and sent a text message to Gu Beichen: husband, in the evening, president Yu asked everyone to relax. Everyone is going to the emperor club! Gu Beichen just got on the elevator after the meeting. Seeing the text message, he couldn''t help smiling: Well, it''s said that you are the emperor''s largest shareholder! "..." Jian Mo hated and loved Gu Beichen''s understanding ability. He smiled and replied: but I''m invisible, so I need my husband to come forward. Gu Beichen: let me smile more. Jane Mo: husband is the best! kiss you! The sound of "Ding" came, and Gu Beichen looked at the text message with a deep line of sight At the moment when the elevator door opened, he went out and took away his mobile phone, which had restored his usual indifference. Xiao Jing followed closely, with mixed feelings in his heart. Now the situation is so difficult. Fortunately, Chen Shao has a Jian Mo around him, which can make him relax and smile from his heart occasionally In fact, he and Susan are very happy. Jane Mo is generous and decent, smart and beautiful... The most important thing is that she loves Chen Shao and believes in Chen Shao. With her around Chen Shao, I''m afraid Chen Shao doesn''t think all the problems are problems? "Second uncle!" Gu Beichen went to the lounge, "how do you think of it today?" "Go to the neighborhood and come and have a look..." Gu muhuai inadvertently looked at Xiao Jing. "However, I haven''t come back for six years, so I''ve become a guest." Gu Beichen''s face remained unchanged, and his thin lips gently said, "how can it?" He glanced at the financial statements on the table. "How can guests see the emperor''s financial statements?" Gu muhuai smiled. He had seen Gu Beichen''s ability to play Tai Chi six years ago I thought the emperor would be his if I solved him, but in the end... Instead, I created a ruthless Gu Beichen. "Dinner together in the evening?" Gu mohuai changed the topic, "our uncles and nephews haven''t talked alone for a long time..." "Good!" Gu Beichen readily replied, "I almost forgot to mention it when my second uncle didn''t mention it..." his eagle eyes gradually became deep and bottomless. "The last time we had dinner alone, it seemed that I was kidnapped back." At the same time, Gu Beichen''s cold face was filled with a strange smile. That smile made people feel cold from the bottom of their feet. Gu mohuai and Gu Beichen looked up. In their confrontation, they were filled with thoughts ¡­¡­ Jane Mo shook her arm and felt some intermittent weakness in her left hand. "Sister Mo, why don''t you have a rest first?" Xiang night thought Jian Mo was tired. "This paper mold is almost finished anyway." Jane nodded, shook her hand again, clenched and loosened it several times before she felt that she had regained her strength. In the evening, I want to go to the emperor club. The whole design department is excited, which makes other departments jealous. Fortunately, at last, Yu Ziyun made a speech and said that after everyone went, there were smiles on their faces. Before Jane Mo went to the club, she dialed Gu Beichen''s phone. Before she spoke, Gu Beichen''s low and charming voice came over "I also have a dinner party in the evening. I''ll come to you when it''s over, huh?" Jane Mo smiled. "You don''t have to rush over. I can''t. I''ll take a colleague''s car to Runze garden. Will you come here in the evening?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, "well, good!" Recently, the media''s limelight has passed a little. After all, Runze park is in the urban area, which is more convenient. Mainly, there must be a contest between him and his second uncle at night. He can''t control the time "If I don''t have the past and you''re scattered, send me a message!" "OK..." Jane Mo answered sweetly, then hung up the phone and went to the emperor''s club with everyone. Gu Beichen received his mobile phone. In due time, the car had arrived at the restaurant where Gu mohuai met. While Xiao Jing parked the car, Gu Beichen missed his sight and fell on the sign of the quiet and luxurious western restaurant through the window. The eagle''s eyes cooled down. After opening the door and getting out of the car, Gu Beichen stepped steadily and slowly into the restaurant with one hand. "Chen Shao, I''ll go there!" Xiao Jing looked at Gu mohuai, who was already waiting. Gu Beichen nodded slightly and kept walking towards Gu murhuai. In due time, Gu mohuai sent the edited text message I can only see the half hidden words under the sending prompt. I can vaguely see the following contents... I will try my best to hold Gu Beichen! Chapter 347 "Jane, is this the work you applied for UCL?" Andy looked around curiously, his eyes full of amazement, "God, how did you do such an extreme combination design?" Jane Mo thought a little deeply and held a glass of champagne in her hand. "At that time..." she paused, and the corners of her mouth were full of happiness, "because I met the happiest thing when I was the saddest." Andy looks at Jane Mo curiously "In my life, there was a very important man who said this to me at that time..." Jane Mo''s eyes were filled with a smile, as if she had returned to that day and night without sleep and desperately designed the scene here. The three meals of love that day and what Gu Beichen said to her "He said... With the growth of age, life will have more and more problems and face more and more problems. If you can solve them and digest them all, the sunshine in the morning will always welcome you!" Jane Mo said and looked at Andy. "Can you understand that feeling? The transformation from darkness to sunshine..." Andy nodded and shook his head. He didn''t understand. Jane Mo smiled, "that... Is love!" Then she looked at Andy with deep intention, and then made a mess with everyone The whole Xiangyu people are here. No matter whether they have any small thoughts and exclusion psychology on weekdays, they still work hard when they can play. Drinking, playing games, playing some harmless jokes... Soon, everyone was crazy together. "In other words, Daxiong... When will you marry us Xiaoya back?" Someone asked jokingly. Da Xiong patted his chest, "always ready... Just waiting for her Mo Xiaoya to nod." Everyone laughed, "Xiaoya, Daxiong has been chasing you for several years. You don''t nod, and you''re not afraid that he won''t chase you when he''s tired?" Mo Xiaoya hasn''t spoken yet, but da Xiong is worried first, "Oh, don''t talk nonsense. I''m strong... I''ve been chasing you all the time!" "Da Xiong, you''re so worthless..." Da Xiong spit, "what else can you do for your own woman?" Everyone was amused by Da Xiong "Xiaoya, are you really going to let Da Xiong chase you all the time?" Jane Mojie said to Mo Xiaoya, "don''t wait to miss a good man. There are few four or five years in life." "Tut Tut, are you feeling it?" Mo Xiaoya joked. Jane Mo did not shy away, nodded, "nature..." Mo Xiaoya sighed deeply, "last time in heaven night, Da Xiong asked me for contact. At that time, I was arrogant... Later, I slowly had feelings with him. He was chasing after him every day, but..." Jane Mo frowned and suddenly reflected what Mo Xiaoya meant. She looked at Da Xiong, who was chatting with everyone. She couldn''t help asking, "you didn''t think about it, but he didn''t dare to think about it?" "What does he dare not?" Mo Xiaoya said, and suddenly her face turned red. Jian Mo is a person from the love world. When she saw Mo Xiaoya, she was ambiguous and said, "tut Tut, blushing like this... Was she eaten?" Mo Xiaoya admitted generously "Why don''t you try harder to propose to you?" Jane was a little surprised. The man ate it in his mouth, but brother Da Xiong hasn''t proposed yet? When Mo Xiaoya said this, she was also very disappointed... Even if a woman is no matter how high she is, once she is conquered by a man in bed, basically no woman can put on airs with that man. "What are you talking about?" Da Xiong suddenly rubbed over and startled Mo Xiaoya and Jian mo. Jane Mo wants to remind Da Xiong, but she is stopped by Mo Xiaoya Thinking about personal happiness, Jian Mo thinks that anyway, Da Xiong is sincere to Mo Xiaoya... Maybe what he enjoys is the feeling that Mo Xiaoya has been chased all the time? Taking out her mobile phone, Jane Mo suddenly sent Gu Beichen a text message with some sadness: ah Chen, when did you fall in love with me? In the western restaurant where the light is not very bright, Gu Beichen and Gu mohuai are indifferent, and a corner of their mouth is always smiling. It is clear that everyone knows each other, but no one is exposed. The mobile phone vibrated. Gu Beichen put down his glass and picked it up. Looking at Jian Mo''s text message, his line of sight suddenly deepened and then replied to the past... Earlier than you imagined and earlier than I knew! Jian Mo looked at the message and smiled at the corners of her mouth There is a kind of love... Called imperceptible! Jian Mo sent another text message to Gu Beichen: ah Chen, I love you... Earlier than you thought! Gu Beichen''s sight at the text message suddenly congealed together, and the dignified atmosphere in the restaurant, which had just talked with Gu mohuai, also eased a little. Gu muhuai noticed Gu Beichen''s face, but his cold face was so indifferent that there was no overflow of emotion Gu Beichen didn''t reply to the text message again. Jian Mo''s words had warmed his heart like honey. "I''m afraid there''s nothing I can do about what my second uncle just said..." Gu Beichen received his mobile phone and raised his eyes. It was already cold. "The Emperor didn''t rely on nepotism. This was what my second uncle said to me..." After Gu mohuai listened, the smile on the corners of his mouth deepened, but there was no temperature at all. "Jian Heng wants to enter the Emperor... I welcome you!" Gu Beichen said quietly, "but if you want to make progress... I''m afraid it''s difficult!" In the emperor''s club, Xiangyu''s people have played to the highest point. Compared with their madness, the quiet in a private room at the end of the 18th floor makes people feel terrible. "Dong Dong!" As the knock came, Morson went to open the door. A man in the uniform of the imperial club came in and bowed respectfully to Shi Shaoqin, who sat on the sofa and was quiet like a sculpture. "Qin Shao, Jian Mo is indeed..." Shi Shaoqin put his hands on his overlapping legs at random, and his slender fingers grabbed the goblet and shook it gently... The dead corner of the light hid his handsome face like a demon. Silence In such a big room, even Morson, who had been with him for a long time, felt depressed. The visitor wanted to find out Shi Shaoqin''s idea, but his sight was slightly raised and he hurriedly lowered his eyes. Shi Shaoqin slowly raised the glass, put it on his beautiful lips and took a shallow SIP The mellow wine at the entrance spread in the taste buds and then slipped into the throat. His every move is elegant to unreal. Coupled with his beautiful appearance, it makes people feel that... Qingcheng should not be used only on women. "It''s time for Jane and Mochen to test the medicine slowly in the room..." it''s time for Jane and Mochen to test the medicine! " The reporter''s heart suddenly "cluttered", as if his whole body were in an ice cave. "Mosen..." Shi Shaoqin shouted. "Qin Shao?" Shi Shaoqin''s narrow Phoenix eyes were slightly chilly. He just looked at Morson and said, "just follow the original plan!" Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin, then lowered his eyes and answered, "yes!" Chapter 348 "Oh, I just heard from the waiter that the emperor''s wine mixing is very good..." someone came in from the outside, "do you want to order one for each?" With that, he also raised the wine list in his hand. It''s rare to come to such an advanced place. Naturally, everyone is reluctant to miss the opportunity to try. The man excitedly asked everyone what to drink, "Jane Mo, what do you want?" Jane Mo said casually, "sunshine!" "Ah?" Jane Mo smiled and said, "I''ll order a cup of sunshine... It doesn''t say that guests can order what they want at will?" "Tut Tut, Mo Mo, is it really good for you to be so capricious as the boss''s wife?" Mo Xiaoya shook her head, and then with a bad smile, she ordered a cup casually, "dream!" "..." when he ordered a single person to listen, the corners of his mouth twitched, "you two have to fight!" However, he wrote it down and excitedly placed an order. Wearing a white shirt and black trousers, Jane truss leaned against the staircase and lit a cigarette smoking. The person who ordered the order came over with a good order, "here, it''s all done..." "Thank you!" Jian Heng took out the money from his pocket and gave it to the person who ordered it. "It''s all up to you to finish my drinking task today." "Anyway, we also want to drink. You take the Commission and I''ll take the effort money..." he looked at the 500 yuan in his hand, smiled, pretended and turned back. Jane truss looked at the man''s back, his sight was deep, turned and walked downstairs The bartender mixed the wine cup by cup. When Jian Heng saw the orange wine on the table, he found a chance. Unconsciously, he opened a very thin reagent tube only one centimeter in size and poured in the colorless liquid. "Wait a minute and send it up according to this list..." Jane truss summoned the waiter to explain, "who ordered which cup, don''t make a mistake." "OK!" The waiter hung his head slightly and answered the wine list. Then he went up to one of the plates and walked to the 18th floor. However, when crossing the girder, a strange emotion slipped through the bottom of my eyes. Jian truss watched several waiters go away with wine one after another. After a deep smile overflowed from the corners of his mouth, he turned and went to the box about Chu Zixiao. Jian Mo''s colleagues thought he was a staff member in the club, and the people in the club thought he was Xiangyu... In fact, it was just playing human greed. "I just heard that Xiangyu''s people are upstairs..." Jian Heng looked at Chu Zixiao, who was drinking in silence, and opened his mouth. Chu Zixiao glanced at Jane truss and didn''t speak. Jian Heng didn''t say much, but asked, "how are you thinking about the emperor''s shares?" "I''m afraid I''ll disappoint you!" Chu Zixiao coldly opened his mouth, put down the cup and got up, "I''ll solve my business by myself. I won''t sell the emperor''s shares!" The words fell, and Chu Zixiao wanted to leave without saying anything. "Xiaomo is on the 18th floor," Jian truss said slowly when Chu Zixiao put his hand on the door handle of the room, "aren''t you going to go up and have a look?" Chu Zixiao glanced at Jian truss and didn''t speak. He just opened the door and left Jane Chang smiled at the corners of her mouth as if she were not worried at all. Chu Zixiao walked into the elevator with a cold face and went to the underground parking lot... His sight fell on the emperor logo on the elevator and gradually became deep. With a "Ding" sound, the elevator reached the lower floor. At the moment when the elevator door opened, Chu Zixiao''s eyes suddenly slipped with a sharp light. Before Chu Zixiao went out, the elevator door closed again. His eyes fell coldly on the number button and then pressed the number of 18. What Jian Heng just said means something. What''s his purpose? Jian Mo looked at the orange wine mixing and left his mouth... He mixed it with the Dragon owl. He had lost in color alone. She can guarantee that it is not as good as the Dragon owl! Thinking, after Jane Mo and Mo Xiaoya touched the next cup, they tasted it... It was cool in their mouth, followed by a hint of spicy, a feeling of drinking iced water in the summer sun. "It tastes good..." Jane Mo picked her eyebrows and looked at Mo Xiaoya, and drank again. Although it''s not as surprising as Longxiao''s tune, it''s really first-class. Sure enough, things from first-class places will not disappoint people. "Come on, let''s drink to the growing development of Xiangyu in the future..." suddenly someone proposed and raised the cup. The crowd picked up the wine in their hands, raised it, and then shouted together, clinked their glasses and began to dry. Jane Mo didn''t know if she was drinking too hard. She just felt a burning feeling in her stomach. "Sister Mo, are you not feeling well?" Mu Xiaoran was the first to find something wrong with Jian mo. "I guess I drank a little hard..." Jane Mo endured. "I''ll go to the bathroom." "Shall I accompany you?" "No need..." Jane Mo smiled and shook her head, indicating that she was fine. She took her bag and turned and walked out. When Chu Zixiao got out of the elevator, he saw Jian Mo walking in the direction of the bathroom. He frowned slightly and followed Jane Mo went into the bathroom and gently propped the glass table with her hand to boil water. Just now, her stomach was burning badly. Gradually, she felt as if the whole body was burning a flame, some uncomfortable and some hot. Jane Mo didn''t expect that the aftereffect of that glass of wine would be so strong Looking at myself in the mirror, my cheeks have been stained with crimson. She swallowed slightly and washed her face with water, but she still couldn''t suppress the mania in her body. Jane Mo just felt more and more uncomfortable, and even her eyes became blurred She forbeared and didn''t resist the discomfort in her body. Jane Mo took out her mobile phone and sent a text message to Mo Xiaoya, saying she was uncomfortable and left first Then, the talent staggered out of the bathroom, held the wall, tried to endure the increasingly fierce heat in his body, and walked to the elevator step by step. It seems that when I passed Chu Zixiao, I didn''t find his existence. Chu Zixiao looked at the abnormal flush on Jian Mo''s face and subconsciously reacted. What happened? Jian Heng said he would try to get Mo Mo back to him... And just before he left, Jian Heng obviously meant something. Chu Zixiao stared in an instant Foam was drugged by Jane truss? Chu Zixiao was thinking about it. He saw that Jian Mo''s legs and feet were soft and the whole person fell to one side He stepped forward with an arrow and held Jian Mo, "Mo Mo?" The man''s breath ran into Jane Mo''s nose. At that moment, all the nerves drove her to lean against Chu Zixiao''s body. "Hot..." Jian Mo snorted, and the whole world, whose sight had been blurred, became blurred, "it''s so hot..." Chapter 349 Chu Zixiao has determined that Jian Mo has been drugged. He immediately frowned and helped her up. "Hmm..." Jian Mo snorted. The male breath drove her. With instinct, she kept leaning against Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao''s body is already stiff. Clearly know that Jian Mo is in medicine at the moment, and is not voluntary at all However, when the fragrance of her body ran between his nose, the heat in her body burned like the dry firewood lit. "It''s so hot..." Jane Mo began to hum sadly. She completely lost consciousness because of the medicine. Chu Zixiao''s heart kept trembling. Jian Mo''s body kept arching him. His thoughts had been confused. Even if you are a gentleman, how many people can resist the soft fragrance in your arms? Besides, Jane Mo is the woman he loves deeply? Breathing became urgent, not only the simple foam of traditional Chinese medicine, but also Chu Zixiao. "Please... Um..." Jian Mo was dying. Her whole body seemed to be on fire. The whole person fell into despair and had to rub Chu Zixiao for help, "it''s so hot... Um..." Chu Zixiao''s eyes have become scarlet. In this way, Jian Mo completely wiped away all his reason "I''m so uncomfortable..." Jane Mo''s nose has already burst into tears, as if she was about to cry. Her little hand is holding Chu Zixiao''s shirt tightly, and her face is completely pathetic. Chu Zixiao stared at her deeply, and there were two forces in her heart constantly tearing Jian Mo rubbed Chu Zixiao all the time because she was sad, and her lips inadvertently slipped through the skin under his open shirt collar. This time, completely disintegrated Chu Zixiao''s last reason. "Mo Mo, you provoked me!" Chu Zixiao clenched his teeth and squeezed out a few words from between his teeth, and a crazy flame burst out of his eyes. "Well..." At the right time, Jane Mo hummed, feeling that she answered Chu Zixiao''s words. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were deep, bent over and picked up Jian Mo, and then... Walked to the elevator. At the moment when the elevator door opened, it was opened by the door of Xiangyu private room Chu Zixiao took Jian Mo into the elevator. Mu Xiaoran came out, looked around subconsciously, and walked to the bathroom. "Sister mo..." Mu Xiaoran shouted at the door of the bathroom. There was no movement inside. He simply walked in, "sister Mo?" No one responded. Mu Xiaoran frowned slightly and knocked on the door one by one. "Sister Mo, are you there?" Mu Xiaoran didn''t see Jian Mo''s person until he pushed away the last grid. The frown was tighter. Mu Xiaoran looked around in doubt. Finally, he went out of the bathroom and went back to the box. "Sister ya, sister Mo is not in the bathroom," Mu Xiaoran said anxiously. "Is it..." "You care about foam." Mo Xiaoya said, suspiciously taking out her mobile phone and trying to call Jane mo. Mu Xiaoran was still worried, but the corners of his mouth pulled, "I told sister Mo, it''s right to care about her!" "Don''t be nervous, I''m not jealous..." Mo Xiaoya smiled and teased, but saw a text message sent by Jane mo. "Mo Mo just sent me a text message and said that she felt bad and went back first." "Oh..." Mu Xiaoran chuckled his lips and watched everyone play happily. He was in no mood because he was worried about Jian mo. Sitting aside, mu Xiaoran thought about whether to inform Gu Beichen However, I don''t know what''s going on at the moment. Will it be too much fuss if she notifies me? Mu Xiaoran hesitated here. In another leisure hall on the 18th floor, Shi Shaoqin''s mobile phone rang. "Huh?" Shi Shaoqin whispered slowly. "Qin Shao, Chu Zixiao took Jian Mo away!" There was a dignified voice on the other side of the phone, "in addition, it seems... Jane Mo seems to have had an attack." Shi Shaoqin''s narrow Phoenix eyes immediately narrowed slightly Jane Mo has silence in her body. In order to make the time cooperate well, the dose of people is not large. Even if she has physical problems, it can''t happen at this moment! "Someone always destroys the game..." Shi Shaoqin sighed, and his long voice overflowed the beautiful lips, "... It makes people unhappy!" Mosen swallowed it secretly, and his heart tightened up because of Shi Shaoqin''s words. "Qin Shao, do you want to stop it?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak immediately. He was silent for a while before slowly opening his mouth: "since someone is willing to participate, let''s make the game more fun." The other end of the phone didn''t speak, but quietly waited for Shi Shaoqin''s orders. "Let people stare at Chu Zixiao..." Shi Shaoqin smiled at the corners of his mouth, "lead Gu Beichen to the past." "Yes!" The man answered and received the phone after Shi Shaoqin hung up. Shi Shaoqin got up, went to the window, looked at the debauchery under the bright neon lights of Los Angeles and sighed. "In fact..." after a while, Shi Shaoqin began slowly. "It''s also a good choice for Jian Mo to let Chu Zixiao come." Mosen''s Adam''s apple rolled down and looked at Shi Shaoqin quietly Shi Shaoqin suddenly laughed. That smile was very light, but it was enough to confuse people''s eyes and make people forget the heavy and violent breath on him "Whether it''s Chu Zixiao or Chen... It''s good for me." Shi Shaoqin''s smile deepened. "I think the game is more and more fun!" Morson swallowed subconsciously, feeling that his whole body was wrapped in cold. ¡­¡­ Mu Xiaoran felt uneasy and even couldn''t sit still. Xiangyu''s people had a good time. With their happy laughter, her heart seemed to be caught. Forbearance, mu Xiaoran took his mobile phone, edited the text message and sent it to Gu Beichen. There was a shaking sound from the mobile phone. Gu Beichen didn''t move. He just looked at Gu mohuai and said calmly: "second uncle, if you have the ability, the emperor is there, you......" his thin lips shallow hooked a deep smile, and his eyes showed the depth under the indifference, just like an ancient pond, swallowing everything around at any time, "... You can come and take it!" After that, Gu Beichen didn''t say anything, just took out his mobile phone and opened the screen He thought it was Jian MOFA, but it was mu Xiaoran. Sister Mo felt uncomfortable after drinking a glass of mixed wine and said to go first! Gu Beichen frowned slightly and then dialed Jian Mo''s phone... But it kept ringing and no one answered. Without saying anything, he got up and walked out with great strides. Gu mohuai''s eyes were deep, as if he was surprised at Gu Beichen''s behavior... However, there was a sharp light on the bottom of his eyes. While Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing were out of the restaurant, Gu mohuai took out his mobile phone and dialed Jian Heng, "done?" "Hmm..." Jian Heng answered with a faint smile, "Chu Zixiao has gone with Jian mo." Gu mohuai hung up the phone after answering the voice, and gently put a narrow smile on the corner of his mouth... His sight fell on the red wine cup Gu Beichen had drunk, gradually getting deeper After today, Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao will never go back! Chapter 350 Gu mohuai''s eyes were full of smiles. He summoned the waiter and said, "wrap this red wine glass for me..." The waiter frowned slightly, but he didn''t ask much. He just answered and went to the box containing the red wine glass. Gu mohuai''s mouth had already hooked a curve of evil flattery, got up, took the red wine cup Gu Beichen had drunk and walked out. While leaving the restaurant, he took out his mobile phone and dialed Gu Moyuan. "Silent bosom?" Gu Moyuan looked at Cen Lanxi, who was watching TV, got up and went to the French window, "what''s so late?" "Just having dinner with Jian Heng, I took the wine cup he had drunk..." Gu murhuai sighed softly. "I''ll go to the hospital to extract the saliva first. You see if you want to have a paternity test one day, call me." Gu Moyuan was silent. Gu mohuai didn''t rush, but just got on the car and waited. "I''ll think about it..." Gu Moyuan said after all. "Shall I pick it up first?" Gu muhuai asked deliberately. Gu Moyuan was silent for a while, "go first..." Gu mohuai''s mouth was hooked up. Just listening from here, he knew that brother''s heart... Had loosened. ¡­¡­ After Gu Beichen left the restaurant, he ordered Xiao Jing to go to the Runze garden. At the same time, he dialed Jian mo... But no one answered. There was a dignified look on his cold, carved face. At the moment when the car stopped, Gu Beichen had opened the door to get off and walked to the elevator I went upstairs and pressed the password. When I opened the door, the light came on Gu Beichen frowned slightly and gradually frowned. First intuition... Jane Mo didn''t come back here! Gu Beichen still walked around the house and dialed the phone when he confirmed that Jian Mo was not there. This time... It was turned off. Gu Beichen said coldly as he walked out: "adjust the monitoring of the emperor''s Club!" "Yes!" Xiao Jing answered and hurriedly called the emperor''s club. Taking advantage of the situation, he and Gu Beichen entered the elevator. Xiao Jing drove to the emperor''s club. The person hasn''t arrived yet. There has been a phone call "What''s going on?" Xiao Jing did not wait for the other party to speak, but already said something. "The monitoring is externally controlled and there is a blank period..." the man was a little worried. "It seems that the president''s wife left in that blank period." "Didn''t anyone see it?" Xiao Jing was absorbed and his face became gloomy. The man said obediently, "I''ve asked... The last thing I saw was the waiter who brought the wine in... And then... No one saw it." Xiao Jing''s eyes narrowed slightly, "I didn''t expect that there are such capable people under the emperor''s banner. You can lose them by mixing a glass of wine." He sneered and hung up. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing looked at Beichen from the rearview mirror. Gu beichenjun''s face has been shrouded in haze, and a pair of eagle eyes are well aware of the bottom, "or go to the club." "Yes!" Xiao Jing responded and had to speed up. After arriving at the club, Gu Beichen dialed mu Xiaoran''s phone, "I''m in the monitoring room. Come here." "Oh..." Mu Xiaoran began to get nervous inexplicably, and then hurriedly said to the people around her. After she left first, she asked the waiter and went to the monitoring room. Gu Beichen looked at all kinds of people on the monitoring coldly... If someone really wants to take Jian Mo, that person must first be in the emperor club. According to the time period, Gu Beichen looked at it quickly until "Stop!" Gu Beichen suddenly spoke. The video stopped. Gu Beichen leaned forward and slid his mouse. He looked at Chu Zixiao coming downstairs and going upstairs again. He couldn''t help but frown. The person who just went to order drinks seems to know very well about the monitoring of the club. He can''t see who it is from all angles. The time when Zixiao went up from the underground parking lot is not far from the time when Mo''er left Gu Beichen dialed Chu Zixiao while mu Xiaoran came in "Hello, the number you dialed cannot be connected for the time being. If you need to leave a message, please leave a message after the beep!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed for a moment, and the whole person was shrouded in a heavy and violent atmosphere. "President Gu..." Mu Xiaoran pursed his lips. "Is it sister mo... What''s wrong?" "Tell me about the situation at that time..." Gu Beichen said, taking a notebook on one side to the other side, and his slender and powerful fingers began to drift quickly on the keyboard. Mu Xiaochen''s action didn''t stop tonight. Gu Xiaochen didn''t stop to invade the system. Gu Beichen gathered his eyes when mu Xiaoran talked about drinking. "Do you mean that when someone in your company comes back from the bathroom, he recommends everyone to drink wine?" "Yes! It''s Wang Yueming..." Mu Xiaoran nodded. Gu Beichen''s eyes gathered. Before he spoke, Xiao Jing said, "I''ll find him..." the words fell. Before Gu Beichen could speak, the man had walked out of the monitoring room. "You go on." Gu Beichen said, and the eagle''s eyes fell on the screen and looked at the road controller. When a familiar car slid from the road near the emperor, Gu Beichen''s line of sight suddenly deepened. Look at the time, and then look at the empty window period of internal monitoring of the Emperor just now. The time is basically the same "You go back." Gu Beichen got up after exiting the road control system, "don''t make a statement about today..." "Yes!" Mu Xiaoran endured. After all, he was still worried and asked, "Mr. Gu, will sister Mo be all right?" Gu Beichen looked at mu Xiaoran, "I won''t let her have anything..." It is a commitment and must be achieved. Mu Xiaoran looked at Gu Beichen gratefully. He didn''t turn around until he left. The people in the monitoring room looked at each other, grinned secretly, and had only one idea... If the president''s wife had an accident here, they could poke themselves. While Gu Beichen was out of the monitoring room, Xiao Jing came back and walked to the parking lot with him. He roughly explained the situation of asking Wang Yueming. Xiao Jing could see that Wang Yueming was obviously hiding something, but... His eyes seemed to cover up greed. Not surprisingly, he should have been used by the man who ordered the wine. "Go forward..." Gu Beichen said faintly. If Zixiao really took Mo''er away, it''s still good. I''m afraid it''s not! When Gu Beichen''s heart shrinks and releases, it hurts a little. Such suffocation made it difficult for him to breathe and tore his nerves Although he knew Zixiao wouldn''t hurt Mo''er, his heart was disturbed in the end. Xiao Jing and Gu Beichen respectively pay attention to the street scenes on both sides of the road, hoping to find some traces... But now, they can only find Chu Zixiao''s roller coaster according to the road control display just now. Chapter 351 In the room where the light is not very bright, the atmosphere is ambiguous under the treacherous atmosphere. Even the air seems to be filled with a heartbeat "I''m so uncomfortable..." Jane Mo hummed and twisted her body sadly. She wanted to open her eyes, but in the end, she just opened a thin slit of eyes vaguely. There was a figure standing there in the depths of her eyes. She wanted to see who it was, but there was no way. It''s so hot It''s really hot! Jane Mo sadly licked the dried lip with her little tongue, and her body rubbed sadly on the bed. "Mmm..." Jane Mo''s voice was already crying, and her body seemed to have a lot of ants crawling, itching and painful. Chu Zixiao stood at the end of the bed and looked at Jian Mo sad. His breath became heavier and heavier with the passage of time He took her to the hotel, but the last remaining reason didn''t let him close to Jane mo. He knows that he should call Beichen now But why wouldn''t he? "Well..." Jane Mo has begun to cry out. I don''t know whether it''s because of pain or pain. Chu Zixiao''s breathing became heavier and heavier, and her body gradually reacted because Jane Mo kept grasping her clothes at the moment Footsteps, unconsciously moved in the past. Finally... Sit down by the bed. Feel that there are people around you. That kind of masculinity is like a light escaping from the darkness for Jian Mo at the moment. Her subconscious body moved to the side, and her little hand was weak and trembling, trying to drag Chu Zixiao. Breathing more and more disorderly, even heavy with unbearable whining sound. The right hand has caught Chu Zixiao, and Jian Mo still wants to lift his left hand to grasp... But there is no way to lift that hand several times. Chu Zixiao''s heart had begun to jump wildly, and every heavy stroke hit his nerve. "Please... Um..." Jane Mo has sobbed. Her eyes were blurred and her sight was completely blurred, "so sad..." Chu Zixiao raised his hand with some trembling, instinctively, and slowly extended it to Jian Mo''s hot cheek. It was just a touch, but at that moment, it seemed to have a strong attraction to him... His hand caressed Jane Mo''s eyebrows, cheeks and lips uncontrollably! Breathing more and more heavily, Chu Zixiao''s eyes have become scarlet Jian Mo felt more comfortable because of Chu Zixiao''s touch. She subconsciously grabbed his hand and tightly hindered him, trying to get more. Seeing Jian Mo like this, Chu Zixiao''s heart suddenly shook, and he looked at her in horror. Suddenly... Chu Zixiao pulled Jian Mo away and suddenly pulled back his hand and stood up as if he had been electrocuted. The frightened pupils dilated. How could he do this to her? How could he have such a mind for Mo Mo He even wants to ignore it. That''s it. Maybe there will be a turnaround next! He has such a dirty idea about Mo Mo Chu Zixiao''s breath became thick and heavy. Because of the strength of forbearance, his chest rose and fell... His eyes were filled with complex emotions. There are self reproach, expectation, fear and panic... There is even more hesitation. The slight sense of comfort was gone. Jian Mo made an angry "um" sound and wanted to continue to look for it. With a bang, just as Chu Zixiao regained consciousness, Jian Mo had fallen under the bed "Well..." Jian Mo''s pain was a little stuffy, but in an instant, it became a cry controlled by drugs. Chu Zixiao took a deep breath and wanted to get Jian Mo to bed. However, I was afraid to get close to her, so I had to stand in place and look at her Jane Mo is sad that she has curled up together. From the beginning of the heat wave attack, she is in great pain because of the rapid use of drugs. Chu Zixiao closed her eyes and couldn''t bear to see Jian Mo on the ground. She secretly bit her teeth and bent over. She held back the natural reaction in her body because she touched him and beat her horizontally and picked her up. Feel the man''s breath again. When Chu Zixiao wanted to put her in bed, Jian Mo tightly relied on him "Mo Mo, let go!" Chu Zixiao gritted his teeth and roared, trying to take away Jian Mo and grab his hand. However, I don''t know if he has any idea in his heart, or if Jian Mo''s hand really can''t be taken away... Chu Zixiao is unable to do what he wants. "Give me..." Jane Mo shouted with instinct. Her voice became seductive because of her heavy breathing. "Mo Mo, let go!" Chu Zixiao''s nerves were so tense that he was about to explode. Jane Mo didn''t put it away, but she just hummed. At the same time, when Chu Zixiao wanted to break free hard, she pulled him down with her last strength Chu Zixiao''s breath and Jian Mo have been intertwined, and their faces are close at hand. Even, there seems to be only a gap between the bodies, but they can feel each other''s hot. The Adam''s apple rolls up and down Breathe heavily and make a ''wheezing'' gasp. Jian Mo''s body is rubbing, which is undoubtedly challenging Chu Zixiao''s self-control. Reason gradually disintegrated, but Chu Zixiao still had the last reason... At this time, he couldn''t touch her! Otherwise, they will be really finished! "Give me... Sobbing..." Jian Mo sobbed again sadly. She narrowed her eyes and fell vaguely on Chu Zixiao''s pupil. At that moment, she subconsciously sobbed angrily, "give me... Ah Chen..." The ''ah Chen'' with a delicate gasp and a soft chant is the knife that disintegrates all the reason of Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo with scarlet eyes. Even if her consciousness had been completely controlled by drugs, she could still shout the name of Beichen "Try shouting again!" Chu Zixiao gnashed his teeth and roared, "Jane Mo, will you try again?" "Ah Chen..." as if guided, Jane Mo really shouted again. Chu Zixiao''s eyes burst out irrational crazy anger. He suddenly bent over and kissed Jian Mo''s humming lips, and began to crush! Feeling the man''s breath, Jane Mo subconsciously put her neck on, and wanted to get more Chu Zixiao, who lost his mind, was completely crazy because of Jian Mo''s "initiative" at the moment, and began to be more and more crazy and deepen the kiss... Even his hand began to drift away from Jian Mo''s waist! "Dong Dong!" The knock came quickly, but Chu Zixiao didn''t hear it at the moment, but was manipulated by Yuwang "Bang!" A strong voice came and the door was kicked open! Chu Zixiao seemed to take back his reason all of a sudden, and subconsciously looked back He didn''t see who the visitor was. His body had been pulled up. Then, a "bang" came again. Gu Beichen had already hit Chu Zixiao in the face with a hard punch Chapter 352 Chu Zixiao stumbled back, and his body suddenly hit the bedside table. Then he stopped. The retreat was momentum. Hot tingling came from his face, and pain came from the collision of his leg bend with the bedside table From beginning to end, Chu Zixiao had not had time to respond, but something had happened. "Chu Zixiao, do you know what you''re doing?" Gu Beichen''s voice was as cold as an icicle in an ice cave. He stabbed Chu Zixiao''s heart, "you let me down!" Chu Zixiao just recovered. Looking at the anger on Gu Beichen''s face, his heart suddenly slipped through the guilt under self blame Clearly know not, but, at last, at the moment when Mo Mo shouted out Beichen''s name, all his reason was completely gone! "I thought that if you think for yourself and see for yourself, you will get out of this strange circle..." Gu Beichen said coldly, "however, what did you do in the end?" Chu Zixiao clenched his hand tightly because he was ashamed of his behavior just now. However, Gu Beichen''s words suppressed all his shame, leaving all his anger Gu Beichen sat down beside the bed and looked at Jian Mo''s sad appearance. The hem of his coat had been lifted slightly. The ink pupil was completely distressed. He held her in his arms, trying to make her comfortable first "What did I do?" Chu Zixiao clenched his teeth as if to cover up something and said, "what you did to me, I did..." Gu Beichen slowly raised his eyes and looked at Chu Zixiao. A pair of sharp eyes looked like two knives, "Chu Zixiao, I''m ashamed of Mo''er for you!" Cold words have no feelings. Gu Beichen has picked up Jian Mo, looked at Chu Zixiao coldly, and then turned and walked out "Beichen," Chu Zixiao said as Gu Beichen''s footsteps reached the door, gnashing his teeth like a angry child, "I don''t care if Mo Mo is your wife now, she... I''m going to make a decision in my life!" Gu Beichen stopped his steps, slightly tilted his head, glanced lightly at his eyes, and opened his thin lips coldly: "she... Can you afford it?" He took back his sight and held Jian Mo''s hand tightly. A pair of eagle eyes looked at the front and gradually narrowed up... The atmosphere of bullying overflowed all over his body. "Zixiao," Gu Beichen said indifferently, with a cold voice, "don''t talk about your nephew, take a man''s position... Want to recapture Mo''er from me." he paused, his sight narrowed into a gap, and the cold light shot out fiercely, "you don''t have this ability!" After that, Gu Beichen didn''t stay any longer. He took a steady step, hugged Jian Mo and left The room is still full of the smell left just now. Whether Gu Beichen or Chu Zixiao, they all know... They can''t go back! After what happened tonight, no matter what Chu Zixiao thought at first, why he treated Jian Mo like that later... Everything can''t go back. "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing came over with a room card in his hand. He looked at Jane Mo, then turned and hurried to open the door. Jian Mo became more and more uncomfortable and kept arching in Gu Beichen''s arms. Her cheeks became hot because of the strange flush. Gu Beichen loves her more and more. She needs to bear these all because of him! It was because of him that night six years ago, and today... It''s because of him again! "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen put Jian Mo on the bed, and the ink pupil deepened gradually. "Ah Chen... Um..." Jian Mo whispered subconsciously, "ah Chen... Give it to me..." Where can Gu Beichen make Jian Mo continue to suffer like this? Lips, instead of words. Hands are like a cool medicine With the deepening of the movement, the whole room was shrouded by the night and became ambiguous... Until the tide on Jian Mo''s body gradually dissipated and fell asleep under Gu Beichen''s final attack. Looking at the quiet person, Gu Beichen took her into his arms more and more painfully, and his thin lips gently fell on her forehead He didn''t know what would happen if he didn''t know Zixiao and didn''t arrive at the right time? He won''t mind how Mo''er is, but how should Mo''er face it? "Well..." Suddenly, Jane Mo gave another cry, and her body rubbed back and forth on Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked down. He saw that the red tide that had just dispersed faintly came out again There was a touch of horror in the depths of the ink pupil. He was very clear about such indiscriminate means of flattery. However, after several times like this, he can relapse again... It''s the first time I''ve seen him. Jane Mo''s body is getting worse and worse. The most important thing is that she has fallen into a coma... But her body controls her instinctive consciousness. In this madness, the bath hope that Jane Mo Teng rose gradually disappeared, and the time has come to the early morning Gu Beichen doesn''t know if Jian Mo will relapse again. He can only endure the churning emotion in his heart and wait. In this way, after waiting for about an hour, it was determined that Jane Mo was really all right before she got up and put on her clothes After taking the faded clothes and putting them on Jian Mo, Gu Beichen picked her up and walked out. "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing shouted and then turned to press the elevator. Xiao Jing drove away from the hotel all the way to the villa in the middle of the mountain. Along the way, he occasionally looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror Gu Beichen carefully patted Jane Mo on the back, trying to make her sleep more stable. He has never seen such Chen Shao, so careful and guilty under self reproach. With a deep sigh, Xiao Jing took back his sight Chu Zixiao didn''t take the medicine, but I''m afraid he knew who did it, so he left and went back However, the problem now is that he knows that Mrs. Shao took medicine and didn''t inform Chen Shao. Instead, he wants to make it happen by himself? Thinking like this, Xiao Jing''s heart became more heavy. At home, there is one less person who can give Chen less heart In the dark, Shi Shaoqin sat on the terrace of the hotel with his head tilted. The wind blew slightly and gently raised his slightly long flowing sea, revealing his indifferent vision like water. "Dong Dong!" There was a knock at the door, and then Mosen went to open the door. "Qin Shao!" Someone respectfully lowered his eyes. Shi Shaoqin glanced at him. "Left?" "Yes!" Someone answered, "Gu Beichen just left with Jian mo. according to the time, it should be OK." Shi Shaoqin slightly hooked a thin smile on the corner of his mouth. That smile clearly charmed Sansheng, but it happened that there was no temperature. "I really don''t know... Who said that silence was a poison?" Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes, as if he had no choice. "It''s time for them to see... Silence, what is it!" Chapter 353 The night is deep and heavy. At more than three o''clock in the morning, Los Angeles was quiet. Except for street lights, the whole world fell into darkness and silence. Chu Zixiao was sitting by the river in Los Angeles, surrounded by beer cans that had been drunk, and whether they had been opened or not. With a "bare" sound, he opened another can, raised his head and drank it in one breath. After that, his hands suddenly worked hard, and the can was immediately pinched flat. Hearing the voice of the rate coming from behind, Chu Zixiao looked slightly sideways and saw that it was Jian truss. Ignoring it, he threw the flattened beer can aside and continued to pick up a can to open it. Jian Heng sat down and took a can of it. "Give you a chance, don''t know how to cherish..." he sighed, "Chu Zixiao, you won''t tell me. Finally, you called Gu Beichen and let him go?" A crack! Chu Zixiao threw away the beer can and got up. He grabbed Jian Heng''s collar and lifted him up. Then, he waved it fiercely Unfortunately, Jian Chang won''t stand and let him fight He saw his head slightly deviated, his hand raised with the trend, and already held Chu Zixiao''s fist. "What are you doing?" Jane''s face was cold. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were scarlet. "Jian Chang, do you have a brother like this? You even put that medicine on Mo Mo..." Jane truss pulled Chu Zixiao away, grabbed his hand and said coldly, "I''m giving you a chance..." "Shit!" Chu Zixiao was angry because of his behavior at that time, and directly burst into foul language, "if I didn''t go up, what would she do?" "Didn''t you go up?" Jian Heng sneered, "Chu Zixiao, don''t tell me that you don''t feel excited when you see such a small foam!" When it comes to the pain, Chu Zixiao immediately blushes. "Jian Heng, you bastard!" Chu Zixiao roared and punched Jian truss again. Jian Heng didn''t fight back, but just avoided and said coldly, "just admit it... You have a possessive desire for Xiaomo. What are you struggling with? You love Xiaomo, Chu Zixiao. Aren''t you sad when you see her around Gu Beichen?" The fist glided past with the sound of the wind, but Jian truss was relaxed to avoid it. "Especially in the late night like this, Xiaomo lies in Gu Beichen''s arms..." Jian Chang said coldly, narrowing his eyes. "Do you sleep at ease every night?" "Ah --" Chu Zixiao finally roared, ''Bang'', and hit his hand on the night lamp post The hand was tingling, but Chu Zixiao didn''t feel it at all. He just clenched his teeth tightly. Every word of Jian Chang stimulated his nerves... Suffocated him! Yes, he couldn''t sleep every night. He was thinking that foam was tossing and panting under Beichen. He''s going crazy Especially when she tried to restrain herself from getting her, she shouted Beichen''s name under her consciousness... He was completely crazy. Such a kiss, obviously there is no temperature, but he greedily wants to continue. No matter whether she is Beichen''s wife or not, no matter what secular she is... He just wants her! Taking back her mind, he chewed all his nerves in a hundred turns... Without Jane Mo, he was going crazy! "Chu Zixiao, even if you don''t admit it at this moment, are you unwilling?" Jian Heng said faintly, "yes, I''m an asshole... But I just want Xiaomo to leave Gu Beichen, the enemy!" Chu Zixiao''s eyes were already congested. He put his hand down. There was a faint blood stain left on the lamp post. "If..." Jian Heng narrowed his eyes slightly and took the last dose of medicine, "... You want Xiaomo to return to you. Now the only way is to bring down... Gu Beichen!" He smiled at the corners of his mouth, "only in this way will Xiaomo leave him!" With a bang, Chu Zixiao''s faith broke at this moment When everything is beyond reason, he is completely crazy. The calm night wind blows across my face, which is obviously comfortable, but it makes people feel cold. The wound on Chu Zixiao''s hand was tingling faintly because it was blown by the wind. Once, it seemed to stick in his heart... It reminded him of the kiss at that time and the sentence "ah Chen" in Jian Mo''s mouth at any time! The wind blows gently. The darkness of the East was gradually dispersed by the light of the dawn When a new day comes under the rising sun, it is destined to be another extraordinary day. "Hmm..." Jian Mo''s whole body was as sore as falling apart. When she turned over, she felt terrible pain. Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes and looked at Jian Mo''s bleary eyes. The ink pupil was deep. "Good morning, husband..." "Good morning!" Jane Mo frowned, "it hurts..." she complained coyly. "The pain is because I''m terrible!" Gu Beichen took her into his arms and smiled with evil charm at the corners of his mouth Jane Mo tilted her mouth and opened her eyes. Her thoughts gradually gathered back. Suddenly, she frowned "How did I get back?" Asked Jane mo. Last night, after drinking alcohol, she was rebellious. She sent a text message to Xiaoya and planned to leave, but she didn''t seem to remember clearly... She just remembered that she couldn''t walk, as if she fell down? In the impression, someone held her? "When I went to find you, I saw you were uncomfortable..." Gu Beichen told a lie calmly, "I''ll bring you back." Jane Mo felt something was wrong. After thinking for a long time, she asked, "I''m not feeling well. Do you still..." she paused, gritted her teeth and continued to question, "you still fuck me!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and said solemnly, "you said you were uncomfortable and let me exercise to help you volatilize the wine gas... Tut Tut, I didn''t expect you to be so enthusiastic after you were drunk!" Hearing the teasing in Gu Beichen''s tone, Jian Mo''s face turned red. "You talk nonsense, that''s definitely not what I said..." Jane Mo said angrily and wanted to get up. However, because the body was crushed too many times and the whole body was sore, while sitting up, Jane Mo frowned and made a light "Oh" sound. "Does it hurt?" Gu Beichen got up, frowned and wanted to check Jian Mo, "I put ointment on you last night..." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she was shy and wanted to find a ground crack to drill in, "Gu Beichen!" Gu Beichen smiled and looked at Jian Mo''s anger because she was shy. He looked deeply and pulled her into his arms, "fool... We are husband and wife. We are so close. What else can we be shy?" Jane Mo left the corner of her mouth, "you must have lied to me..." "You were drunk last night... You didn''t eat your feet again and again." Gu Beichen continued to lie calmly, "don''t drink when you go out in the future... Your wine is OK in front of me. If it wasn''t for me, would you also pull a man?" Hearing that Gu Beichen was a little angry, Jian Mo secretly spit out his tongue and didn''t dare to continue to tangle with this problem No wonder it''s broken. Are you drunk? Thinking, Jane Mo whispered, "who made your bartender so strong?" Chapter 354 Looking at Jian Mo''s charming appearance, Gu Beichen looked deeply... He was glad that Jian Mo had no impression of what happened last night. If she knows that Zixiao treats her like that, she will collapse! With a faint sigh, Gu Beichen loosened Jian Mo, "go and wash, I asked aunt Luo to prepare sobering Soup for you... See if you dare to drink freely in the future!" Jane vomited her tongue again, and then dragged her aching body to wash When she saw herself in the mirror and the kiss marks on her body, Jane Mo was happy and angry. Suddenly, a little itchy feeling came from my arm With a toothbrush in her mouth, Jane Mo scratched at the itchy place. After a while, she scratched red. She frowned slightly. Jian Mo looked at the red area, which was swollen last time. She couldn''t help but turn her mouth and mutter, "there''s still an incubation period after being bitten by mosquitoes?" Jane Mo didn''t care and continued to brush her teeth and wash. Gu Beichen has finished washing from another bedroom and went downstairs. He is reading the newspaper on the dining table In order to prevent Gu Beichen from making a fuss again, Jian Mo wore a knee length pleated skirt with middle sleeves, which made the place red by herself. Aunt Luo has prepared sober soup and light breakfast... Seeing Jane foam coming down, she greeted with a smile, "young lady." Jian Mo smiled back and sat down opposite Gu Beichen. "Wait, I''ll drive to work by myself. In the evening, I''ll pick up the milk bag and come back for the weekend." Gu Beichen put down the newspaper and deeply coagulated his eyes. He wanted to refuse, but he nodded in the end. After eating breakfast, Jian Mo and Gu Beichen drove out of the villa Just out of the door, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone vibrated. Seeing the call, Gu Beichen saw that it was Chen Xuan''s. Gu Beichen put on Bluetooth and picked it up, "there''s news?" "No..." Chen Xuan''s voice was a little dignified. "I inquired about the Chen family. Recently, Mo palace didn''t know why and stopped all business." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and his sight became deep. "So no one knows if Shi Shaoqin is there..." Chen xuandun said, "in addition, there are people on the road. There is a problem in the Mo palace, and someone began to oppose Shi Shaoqin." Such rumors have never stopped, and there are often people in Mo palace who can''t stand the torture who want to resist... But in the end, they were suppressed by Shi Shaoqin in the most cruel way. Chen Xuan knows this, and Gu Beichen knows it. "It''s not easy to judge whether it''s true this time. After all, Mo palace has never stopped all business like this..." Chen Xuan said in a puzzled voice, "so it''s really difficult to judge whether there''s something wrong with Mo palace or what?" "Well..." Gu Beichen answered gently. From beginning to end, there was no expression change on Jun''s face. "I heard that the emperor will hold a shareholders'' meeting today?" Chen Xuan was curious. "Don''t you want to use the ink palace to deal with Gu mohuai?" "You have such a rich imagination, why don''t you write a script?" Gu Beichen sneered and hung up without saying anything. Chen Xuan shrugged as he listened to the beep. Then his eyes fell on the TV. "The emperor will hold a shareholders'' meeting today," said the host. "This is also the first shareholders'' meeting Gu mohuai participated in when he left the emperor and queen... According to the analysis of industry experts, today''s shareholders'' meeting may be the beginning of another reshuffle within the Emperor..." As Chen Xuan listened, the corners of his mouth gradually drew a faint smile of evil and cold charm. How can someone else take what Gu Beichen wants? Downstairs, Emperor Group has blocked many media. The security guard kept waiting for Mingchen to stop the car directly outside the parking line, but they were all enthusiastic. The TV news is all about today''s emperor shareholders'' meeting. Four years ago, Gu Beichen successfully traded Blossom & TB for 5% of Gu Nanyi''s shares, which further laid the chip for his absolute control of the emperor. However, the shares held by Gu Ci and Gu Yuan will obviously become a time bomb for Gu Beichen and Gu mohuai. Outside speculation abounds. The whole city of Los Angeles seems to be paying attention to today''s emperor''s shareholders'' meeting. Will Gu muhuai bring Gu Beichen down as Gu Beichen kicked him away seven years ago. Such a large conference room is dignified. The smaller shareholders looked at each other and nodded to say hello. For them, they don''t care who owns the emperor. They only care about interests Obviously, since Gu Beichen took over the emperor, their shares have risen significantly. Gu Beichen stood in front of the office window with his hands in his pockets. His tall figure became majestic under the sunshine projected from the window. The light beat his body half light and half dark, just like half Satan and half Apollo. Such a contradictory combination of sunshine and darkness on him gradually filled with a strange and cold breath Xiao Jing stood at the door without speaking. Until there was a knock on the door, Xiao Jing moved slightly, and Susan came in "Chen Shao, the meeting will be held in five minutes!" Gu Beichen didn''t speak. After a long silence, he gently opened his thin lips and asked, "are everyone here?" "Except for the second master and..." Susan looked at Xiao Jing and said, "he Chu didn''t arrive." Gu Beichen didn''t answer. He just looked at the line of sight outside and gradually narrowed up until the ink pupil burst out two sharp lights and suddenly opened it. Turn around, everything has returned to calm. Gu Beichen walked out with steady steps. Leng junrudiao''s face was so indifferent, and his eagle eyes were calm, so that people couldn''t see his mood at the moment Jane Mo took her mobile phone and brushed the news. Looking at the comments and the so-called expert remarks above, she gradually frowned. Gu mohuai used to treat ah Chen like that. This time, ah Chen transferred all her assets to her name in order to guard against anything, and even signed the marital property agreement Looking at the speculation of today''s media has tightened her heart. The itchy feeling on her arm came. Jane Mo subconsciously scratched, then turned her fingers on the screen, edited the text message and sent it out. Mo''er: it is said that when people are rich, they will want to be richer. In order to satisfy his wife''s vanity, the husband should refuel! kiss you! Gu Beichen stood at the door of the conference room and looked at the text message sent by Jian mo. Mo Tong gradually became deep One side of the thin lip slightly raised a faint radian, but in a flash, Gu Beichen gathered up while putting away his mobile phone. Xiao Jing pushes open the door of the conference room. Gu Beichen is about to lift his step. At the same time, the elevator "Ding" comes from the arrival sound. Gu Beichen didn''t move and looked sideways Gu mohuai and Chu Zixiao came out one after anothe Chapter 355 "Just downstairs, I met Zixiao..." Gu Mo Huai''s mouth was always filled with his harmless smile, "Beichen, isn''t it too late?" Gu Beichen had no superfluous expression on his cold face. "Second uncle is always punctual... How can he be late?" Light Yi''s voice was filled with a feeling that people couldn''t understand. His eyes turned slightly, facing Chu Zixiao. My nephew, who used to be like a brother, now even Xiao Jing clearly feels the strange smell of the two strangers Gu Beichen didn''t say anything, but converged his eyes and turned into the conference room Everyone in the conference room stood up and looked past Gu Beichen. When Gu mohuai came in, followed by Chu Zixiao, they were stunned in their eyes. Gu Yuan smiled at the corners of her mouth, with a cold look on her elegant face The eldest sister transferred her shares to Zixiao and really cleaned herself up. Who doesn''t know... How much Zixiao worships Beichen? "Meeting..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth indifferently, and his voice was calm without any tone. The summer sun has been burning since the morning, and it wants to evaporate everything in the world. It is filled with anxious heat everywhere. Grandma Gu leaned over and put the rape flowers sorted out from the vegetable garden in front of Grandpa Gu''s tomb, and then wiped the tombstone with a clean towel "In order to stimulate Beichen to stand up, you left him a big problem..." grandma Gu said in a helpless voice, "I know what you think... If Beichen can''t stand up, the emperor will fall down, and you will have no love." Grandma Gu''s movements stopped, and her wrinkled face still had the heroism of her youth. "Why is Beichen such a good child so bumpy?" Then grandma Gu''s eyes turned red Aunt LAN stood quietly and waited on her, and she sighed deeply in her heart. Today''s emperor shareholders'' meeting, although she and the old lady know Chen Shao''s ability... Sometimes, if people are helpless, they can''t be controlled by their ability. Sometimes it''s better to keep sleeping with grandma, even if you don''t want to sleep with her Looking at the photos on Grandpa Gu''s tombstone, grandma Gu has too many thoughts at the bottom of her eyes, "but I don''t trust Beichen..." she sighed, "how can I be willing to leave if I can''t see his complete happiness?" "In fact, we are to blame for today''s situation..." grandma Gu said helplessly. At first, if they were not busy with the emperor and the army, and neglected the discipline of their two sons... How could one be indecisive and the other deep-seated? "I''ll see our great grandson..." grandma Gu smiled when she mentioned this. "Listen to Beichen. If you see it, you have to like Xiaojie more than he does." Grandma Gu''s smile deepened a lot, "don''t envy me. I''ll tell you about Xiaojie later..." Aunt LAN came forward, "old lady, let''s go." "OK..." grandma Gu looked at Grandpa Gu''s black-and-white photos again. With the help of aunt LAN, she left the back mountain. The world of adults in Los Angeles seems to be paying attention to today''s emperor''s shareholders'' meeting. Everyone speculates whether there will be a spark between Gu mohuai and Gu Beichen today. Spencer, the innocent world of children has not been rendered by the secular world. Grandma Gu and aunt LAN looked at Jian Jie sitting behind the piano through the glass window on the classroom door. The little guy played the piano calmly, and his little fingers were not unfamiliar at all. Grandma Gu''s eyes turned red in an instant... It seemed like she was playing the piano in the villa when Gu Beichen was so young many years ago. Beichen was very artistic when he was a child. In fact, his initial ambition was not in the mall Feeling grandma Gu''s sadness, aunt LAN sighed secretly. It''s hard to watch your son fight with his grandson and put it on anyone. Grandma Gu turned and walked outside when Jane Jie stopped playing the piano "Old lady, don''t you meet the young master?" Aunt LAN asked. Grandma Gu smiled. "There''s still a while after class. Go outside and wait... I''ll just look more." Aunt LAN nodded I haven''t seen the young master before. Although I look forward to it, it''s OK. But now people saw it and looked at the distressed look of the pink carving and jade carving. Not to mention grandma Gu, aunt Lan''s heart melted. After the music class, the children ran out happily But Jian Jie, holding his music textbook, walked slowly and calmly. Grandma Gu looked at it from a distance, and the more she looked, the happier she was... But gradually, her heart became sour. Originally, the little guy should be in front of her even if he can''t be with his parents. Now I have to live in school Grandma Gu thought, her nose suddenly sour and her eyes red again. The female general who once held great power and was proud of the battlefield is now emotionally unable to control herself. Jane Jie stopped and looked up slightly at grandma Gu with red eyes. Her dark and dense eyelids moved slightly and asked very attentively, "grandma, did you have sand in your eyes?" "Huh?" Grandma Gu didn''t expect that Jane Jie would take the initiative to talk to her. She didn''t react for the moment. Jane Jie smiled, "grandma, you squat down and I''ll blow for you..." Grandma Gu didn''t care about Jianjie''s intention, so she squatted down. Jane Jie neatly put the music book on the flower bed on one side, then held grandma Gu''s cheek in her tender little hand, and gently exhaled into her eyes After going back and forth a few times, Jane Jie said in grandma Gu''s ear, "grandma, tears are precious gifts and can''t be wasted." Grandma Gu''s heart suddenly throbbed, and she watched Jane Jie release grandma Gu, then smiled at her, turned to get the book, waved to her... And left. Grandma Gu squatted there and couldn''t calm down for a long time. She looked at Jane Jie''s little back and left "Old lady?" Aunt LAN leaned over and helped grandma Gu get up. "Alan..." grandma Gu couldn''t help but burst into tears again. "He... Is the best gift from heaven to Beichen. Beichen won''t fall down with him and Jian Mo!" Aunt LAN doesn''t know what Jane Jie said to grandma Gu, but after listening to grandma Gu, she clearly understands... Even if chenshao''s road is hard, it won''t be difficult to go any more. The noon sun shines on people, making people feel dizzy. At the moment, the emperor group is cold and dignified, and everyone seems to be waiting for the result of the shareholders'' meeting. "Re elect the CEO..." Gu Beichen''s eyes fell on Gu mohuai, indifferently and slowly said, "according to the process, you can!" Chapter 356 The air in the imperial Council room seemed to condense. Outside the emperor, the media are waiting for the results in the hot sun The internal struggle of the emperor has been dug out on the Internet. Even, some people don''t know where to turn out the photos of Gu Beichen''s youth before Such a sunny and warm smile formed a strong contrast with the ruthlessness of taking over the emperor and empress, which made netizens boo and sigh one by one, calling for interests and changing one person. Even, some people joked and shouted, returning me to the beautiful sunshine boy Such comparative photos have become the fuse, and omnipotent netizens have dug out some competitions of Gu Beichen in his youth At that time, he was the spokesman of learning God, sunshine, Wenrun, Prince... And other beautiful words. Since becoming the emperor, he is the best interpreter of indifference, ruthlessness and bloodthirsty. Jian Mo brushed the forum and looked at the group of Gu Beichen who was bathed in the sun. Gradually, his nose became sour. Luo Xiaomi said that he changed after kidnapping She never knew that he was so clean and pure at that time. Jane Mo downloads several pictures to her mobile phone. She is not greedy for Gu Beichen''s past, but loves him "Sister Mo, do you want to go out for dinner?" Mu Xiaoran knocked on the door and asked. Jane Mo took a deep breath and nodded. Several people from the design department went downstairs together and ordered fast food in a fast food restaurant near the office building. After finding a place to sit down, several people chatted, but Jane Mo''s mind was not there. "My first cousin belongs to the emperor, and his news must be true... I texted him at that time and said that it was possible that the Regent would force the palace today!" The voice of the discussion at the next table came "I''ll tell you, it hasn''t been a day or two since Gu Huaihuai peeped at the Emperor... Mr. Gu trained Gu Beichen to be his successor before he died. Of course he was unwilling." "What''s the use of being unwilling?" Someone sneered, "the main palace is the main palace... Gu Beichen has been at the helm of the emperor for seven years. Can you get out of the way?" "But not necessarily... I heard that Gu muhuai is becoming more and more powerful abroad. This time, he said he was coming back to have a look. In fact, he was for the emperor!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The discussion at the next table is getting more and more excited. Coupled with the news of the emperor on TV, it is rare for the whole restaurant to gossip about one thing at a time. "Do you want to bet? I bet Gu muhuai wins..." After a period of "professional analysis", someone took a hundred yuan directly on the table. "I also thought about it..." after this person''s "professional analysis", someone followed closely. Originally, everyone was inclined to Gu Beichen, but at the moment, most of them were pressed on Gu mohuai. Jane mo ''Teng'' got up. Just when Mo Xiaoya was looking at her, she took her bag and went over. She pulled a handful of money out of her wallet and patted it on the table, "I bet Gu Beichen!" Because this table is not from Ling Yu''s office building, and men are not as gossip as women, they don''t recognize Jane Mo for a moment... They can''t help frowning and looking at her suspiciously. Jane Mo smiled calmly, "don''t accept strangers'' bets?" The corner of the man''s mouth twitched, "we''ll play inside. Excuse me... Who are you?" "I also bet Gu Beichen to win!" Mu Xiaoran also jumped out. Then, Mo Xiaoya several people also followed and pressed Gu Beichen "Tut Tut, Gu Beichen is only supported by you flower crazy women..." an inch man sneered at the dinner table, "I press Gu silent, and you wait to lose!" "Insert the latest report..." at the right time, the voice of the financial news host came from the TV, "get the latest news, the emperor''s shareholders'' meeting has just ended. According to the shareholders'' disclosure, someone just proposed to elect the CEO..." Everyone''s eyes fell on several televisions in the restaurant and held their breath "After a vote, Gu Beichen fell behind by 1% of Gu mohuai''s votes..." Jane Mo frowned in an instant, and saw excited smiles on the faces of the people who were silent. Jane Mo''s breath gradually became dignified. She didn''t lose because of herself, but because she was distressed... She wanted to see him! Thinking, Jane Mo turned and wanted to go out "Just when everyone thought the outcome was final, the mysterious shareholders holding 3% unconditionally supported Gu Beichen and immediately reversed the situation..." What to say behind the host? Jian Mo didn''t listen carefully. Just at that moment, there were cheers from several people in Xiangyu and boos and curses from the betting people. "You lost!" Mu Xiaoran raised his chin slightly and said, "give me the money!" Those people who kept silent paid in frustration one after another, glancing sideways at Jian Mo for fear that she would also ask for money... There are at least two or three thousand of those she just photographed, which are the salary of less than half a month! Jane Mo didn''t care about those people, but took her own money and turned and walked out People come and go. The streets are full of people who come down from nearby office buildings to eat. Jian Mo stands there and looks down on the big screen on the building in front Gu Beichen came out of the emperor group with one hand and a tailored suit, which wrapped his body with a long and indifferent appearance. There was no expression on his cold, carved face, but his eagle eyes were deep but calm, with emotions that people couldn''t explore. Xiao Jing, with the same calm face, followed him. Since Gu Beichen wanted to be the emperor, such a special help with the same legendary color seemed to become Gu Beichen''s spokesman. And he is indeed the spokesman. Gu Beichen didn''t answer any sharp questions from the media. Each Tai Chi Master seemed to answer no questions, but Xiao Jing didn''t answer any questions Jane Mo''s eyes are ruddy. She''s worried about him Even if, knowing clearly that this man has gone through ups and downs, no one can beat him now! "How nice..." Jian Mo whispered, "ah Chen, you are so kind to me that I almost forget... Such you are now you!" At the gate of emperor group, a driver has already driven Gu Beichen''s car out. They can leave directly from the underground parking lot, but facing the media is a necessary process... Just because Gu Beichen must give the media a gesture. Emperor group, in his hands, no one can touch. "Sorry, please make way!" Security has come to stop the media. Xiao Jing opened the rear door. After Gu Beichen got on the bus, he went to the driver''s seat and changed the driver to get off. At the same time of Xiao Jingqi''s bullet train, Chu Zixiao came out from the Emperor Gu Beichen tilted his head and looked through the window... Opposite Chu Zixiao''s line of sight in the air, but for a moment, it was cold. Chapter 357 Chu Zixiao stopped where he was. Because of the glass film, he couldn''t see Gu Beichen... But he knew that Beichen was looking at him. The car drove away slowly under the surge of media. Chu Zixiao didn''t take back his sight until the car disappeared at the end of the traffic flow. "I thought you would support Beichen..." a voice with a smile came from behind. Chu Zixiao looked back and calmly shouted, "second aunt!" Gu Yuan stood beside Chu Zixiao with a faint smile on her mouth and a noble arrogance on her makeup face. "I abstained. I didn''t expect you to abstain... Zixiao, can you know why?" "Second aunt... Guess?" Chu Zixiao said with a deep look, looked at Gu Yuan and said, "my law firm still has something to do. Let''s go first." He has already stepped to the parking lot. Gu Yuan didn''t move, but quietly looked at Chu Zixiao''s back and smiled deeply at the corners of her mouth. ¡­¡­ "Chen Shao, that 3% is not bought by the second master. Who will it be?" Xiao Jing asked solemnly. Gu Beichen supported the handrail on one side with his hand, and his sight fell on the passing Street View The second uncle of today''s shareholders'' meeting wants to stir up the water, and his purpose is to know who is secretly buying the emperor''s shares Obviously, neither of them is happy. Gu Beichen converged his sight, took his mobile phone and called Jian mo "Have you eaten yet?" Gu Beichen asked softly. "Eat..." Jane Mo just opened her mouth and suddenly changed her mouth, "no... I didn''t eat because I was worried about you. Would you like to come and eat with me?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep. "I''ll go downstairs in about 20 minutes." Jane Mo smiled at the corner of her mouth, "um..." Then she covered the microphone and whispered to Sun Ke, "I''ll go directly to the construction site later." Sun Ke looked vaguely at the cell phone she covered and smiled, "go, go, wait, Andy asked, I''ll let him go first..." After Jane Mo made an ''OK'' gesture, she said to Gu Beichen, "I''ll wait for you." She hung up the phone, went into the office, brought the things to the construction site in the afternoon, and left in a hurry "Tut Tut," Xiang night shook his head with envy and jealousy, "sister Mo and President Gu are in love every day... It''s really killing me!" She turned and hugged Sun Ke. Sun Ke ruthlessly pulled away to the evening, "if you also find someone to love, you won''t abuse." "Don''t..." Xiang said that night, "there are too few men who are handsome and men like Gu. They are all the same as Niang Pao." Xiang Xiaojiao shook her body in the evening and said, "go lie down for a while and continue to draw..." then, she had turned around with a bumpy step to the large office area. Downstairs, after Jane Mo waited for a while, Gu Beichen arrived. First put things on the co pilot, and then Jane went to the back and sat down As soon as he sat down, he held Gu Beichen''s arm and kissed him, "my husband is great!" Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, and the corners of his mouth with inching temples raised an arc, "why don''t you eat?" "Because you didn''t eat..." Jane Mo said with an eyebrow. Gu Beichen''s sight suddenly became deep, and gradually, a smile came out from the bottom of his eyes "Naughty!" Gu Beichen spoiled and said, as if helpless, but he was full of joy. Xiao Jing looked behind his eyes from the rearview mirror and smiled at the corners of his mouth Having a close person around is better than anything. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo to another meal. It happened that this place was close to the construction site Jian Mo was going to. Jane Morse and Mo Xiaoya had lunch at that time. Although they only ate half of it because of the discussion at the next table about Gu Beichen and Gu mohuai who would win, they were not hungry. Gu Beichen didn''t know if he was in a good mood. He ate three bowls of rice in a row. "I have a game in the evening," Gu Beichen said. "You pick up Xiaojie and go back first?" "Well, good." Jane answered. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight and suddenly stopped eating. Jian Mo felt his hot eyes, subconsciously raised his eyes, held up his chopsticks and asked, "what''s the matter?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but half raised his body, grabbed Jian Mo''s jaw, slightly provoked it, and slipped his lips... Vaguely involved the rice at the corner of her mouth in his mouth. Jian Mo''s face turned red at once. Although she knew Gu Beichen was sometimes evil, every time such an ambiguous move could make her heart beat like thunder. Looking at the charming appearance of Hejian Mo, Gu Beichen''s ink pupil deepened. He casually supported the table with one hand and continued to pick her jaw with the other hand, turning the teasing into a hot deep kiss "How sweet!" Gu Beichen whispered in a low voice, with the magnetism under the charm, "more fragrant than rice!" Jane Mo was kissed by Gu Beichen, and her breath was a little fluffy. While she was panting, she said angrily, "can you have a good meal?" Gu Beichen sat back and said with a smile, "I''m eating well..." "You are..." "What is it?" Gu Beichen laughed. Jane Mo skimmed her mouth and looked like I wouldn''t fall into your trap. "It''s dinner!" Gu Beichen''s smile deepened, "Mo''er!" "Huh?" Jane Mo picked her eyebrows and looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously. "I found..." Gu Beichen narrowed his eyes slightly and said slowly, "I love you more and more!" Jian Mo''s heart was suddenly hit. Gradually, the heartbeat came "Meat hemp!" Jane Mo glanced. Just before Gu Beichen spoke, she grinned, "but I like... I can say more in the future!" "Good!" Gu Beichen answered. In an instant, in the small elegant room, there was a sweet smell gradually. After dinner, Gu Beichen sent Jian Mo to the construction site and went back to the emperor with Xiao Jing. Today, Gu mohuai proposed to re elect the CEO at the shareholders'' meeting, which is just the beginning. Then, many things will slowly surface Emperor, that''s a promise to Grandpa. And Jane Mo, that''s a promise to herself However, the transformation of Chu Zixiao made Gu Beichen sink his mind. ¡­¡­ "Xiao, do you really decide to fight Gu Beichen?" Tang Yu frowned and looked at Chu Zixiao standing in front of the window, "are you really crazy for Jane Mo?" Tang Yu asked in a low voice. He turned around twice and looked at him again. "What do you think? Do you not know the consequences of what you do?" Chu Zixiao didn''t speak. Tang Yu was anxious and asked angrily, "who is Gu Beichen and what temperament he is now? Don''t you know when others can touch what he wants? If he wants Jianmo, what can you argue with him?" Chu Zixiao still didn''t speak. "Xiao," Tang Yu took two steps forward and shouted angrily, "you will not only destroy yourself, but Gu Beichen will also destroy you..." Finally, Chu Zixiao reacted. He turned slowly, looked at Tang Yu and asked, "you also think... He will destroy me, right?" He narrowed his eyes slightly, "so he is unkind to me, and I am naturally unjust!" Chapter 358 Jane Mo stayed at the construction site until she was about to get off work, then hurried back to the company to drive, and then drove all the way to Spencer Jane Jie has been waiting in the parking lot with her teacher. When she saw Jane Mo, the little guy looked disgusted. "I''ve tried my best to come here, mainly..." Jane Mo paused, then nodded and said, "... It''s a traffic jam!" "Obviously it''s the work delay..." Jane Jie rolled his eyes unbearably. "Mommy, can you stop always using a lie?" He reluctantly rolled his eyes. "I didn''t learn to be smart to follow daddy." Jian Mo glanced indifferently. "You and your father are responsible for smart responsibility in our family." she smiled proudly at Jian Jie, "I just need to be responsible for beauty..." "But in terms of beauty," said Jane Jie ruthlessly, "you lost to Daddy!" "..." Jane Mo twitched the corners of her mouth and said angrily, "I think you are a poisonous tongue in our family!" "Thank you for your compliment..." Jane Jie smiled proudly. There was a longing for Jane Mo in her narrowed eyes. Jane Mo likes the proud look of Jane Jie when she is dead. Although she is very upset by him, but... This is the way their mother and son have been getting along in recent years. They are both mother and son and friends! Besides, looking at the milk bag, it seems that when ah Chen was a child Jane Mo''s thoughts paused. Will ah Chen gradually forget that unhappy time because of his shadow in the milk bag? When she returned to the villa, aunt Luo had prepared dinner. Jane Jie opened the mode of selling cute and playing good, which made aunt Luo very happy. Jane Mo is very depressed. Her son''s mother must have picked it up, so her son always dislikes her! "Milk bag, let''s make an appointment to play one by one tomorrow?" Asked Jane mo. "Good!" Jane Jie answered without much excitement. Jane Mo looked at him curiously, "Hey, you have a new lover? You''re not interested in one by one so soon?" Jane Jie drooped her shoulders. "Mommy, why are your thoughts so dirty?" Turning over his eyes, Jian Jie moved his small body and walked towards the other side of the table, and then continued to do his homework... With a distance, he could not be infected by mommy''s dirty thoughts. Jian Mo looked at Jian Jie''s disdain and glared at each other, "do you want to play one by one tomorrow?" "Yes!" Jian Jie said without raising his head, "let aunt Ning and Yiyi come to the villa... We can make a barbecue." Jane Mo smiled and went to ask why he Yining. But before I called, I received a text message. It''s an anonymous text message with a hidden number. Jane Mo opened it and frowned at the contents "If you don''t want an accident, you''d better leave Gu Beichen first." Jane read the message again, breathing slightly dignified... And then replied: who are you? The other party didn''t reply. "Mommy?" Jian Jie felt something wrong with Jian Mo and fanned the black pupil with a confused sound. Jane Mo regained consciousness, subconsciously looked at Jane Jie, "Oh, it''s all right..." she called he Yining and asked her and her to come and play tomorrow. Paradise night. Li Yunze and long Xiao are drinking wine, and Gu Beichen has just left from here "The person holding 3% didn''t appear," Li Yunze shook his glass, "but the other party didn''t support Beichen for any reason. Who do you think it would be?" The Dragon owl''s eyes knew that he didn''t know the bottom, and his carved face was completely indifferent. "Support, not necessarily supporters. But... It shouldn''t be Gu mohuai''s side." "Beichen also said so..." Li Yunze had a headache. "I''m worried about whether the person behind him will be Shi Shaoqin." Then he couldn''t help laughing at himself, "but Shi Shaoqin shouldn''t see the shares of the emperor of God?" The Dragon owl was silent and asked, "has silence got any results?" "No..." Speaking of this, Li Yunze was a little weak, "disintegrated, and then combined, there will be qualitative change..." The Dragon owl frowned abruptly and looked at Li Yunze. "I tried to reorganize with other things, but failed..." Li Yunze frowned. "But I always felt that silence was not just a poison." The Dragon owl took back his sight and looked at the red wine cup in his hand The liquid inside is scarlet, just like blood. "If this thing really flows out of the Mo palace, I''m afraid it''s really not that simple..." the Dragon owl sighed heavily. "However, I hope Shi Shaoqin will come out and solve the gratitude and resentment between him and Beichen." "How to solve it?" Li Yunze was a little excited. "What harm has he caused to Beichen? You know best... Beichen is such a person full of hope for life, but now?" He gritted his teeth and shouted, "Shi Shaoqin crushed all Beichen''s life beliefs!" The Dragon owl was silent. After a while, he said slowly: "now there is Jian Mo, I believe he can survive..." "Really?" Li Yunze is not optimistic at all, "what I''m more worried about is whether Jian Mo will..." "No!" The Dragon owl immediately rejected, "since Beichen handed himself over to Jian Mo, you shouldn''t doubt it." Then he got up and put down the wine glass. He took his pocket with one hand and went out "What are you doing?" Li Yunze frowned. "Go to the beach!" The Dragon owl kept putting down a word and left. Li Yunze sighed deeply, and it was no wonder that the whereabouts of the Dragon owl were in a hurry. At night, it''s a little muggy because there''s no wind. Gu Moyuan frowned nervously at an organization in Los Angeles that specializes in doing private things for wealthy families. "Brother, if you want to cheat yourself, we''ll go back..." Gu murhuai sighed. Gu Moyuan solemnly looked at Gu mohuai, "how could su Mo and I have anything in those years?" "In that case, what are you afraid of?" Gu Moyuan was immediately silent "Do it, or don''t do it, you say..." Gu murhuai sighed again. "But, brother... I still want to remind you." Gu Moyuan looks at Gu mohuai. "If the result is what I think, Jian Heng and Beichen can''t know about it... You need to know, if it''s exposed, what will they bear, whether it''s family or sister-in-law?" Gu Moyuan heaved a sigh, endured it, and finally said, "do it... There must be a result." "Have you decided?" Gu mohuai confirmed again. Gu Moyuan nodded. Gu mohuai took the saliva sample of "Jian truss" extracted before and went into the sample collection room with Gu Moyuan ¡­¡­ At night, the cemetery seemed to be shrouded in strange air, quiet and gloomy. Gu Beichen leaned over and put the daisy in front of the tombstones of Jian Zhanfeng and Su Mo, and then got up. The wind blew gently, raised his unruly short hair and revealed his sharp eagle eyes. "Jian Heng, I will only give him this last chance..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Zhanfeng and said, "if he does anything to hurt Mo''er again, I will not let him go!" The gloomy voice gently spilled over the thin lips and showed the murderous spirit, "even if he is your only son..." The eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly, and Gu Beichen immediately converged his sight and turned around At the moment of lifting the step, the mobile phone vibrated. Gu Beichen thought it was Jian Mo, stopped and took out his mobile phone... Cut open the screen. I saw an anonymous message: if you don''t want Jane Mo to be hurt, you''d better leave her! Chapter 359 Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes suddenly gathered. Looking at this message, he snorted coldly Step and walk outside the cemetery. Gu Beichen dialed the phone to Jian Mo, and his voice was soft and in sharp contrast to the indifference on Jun''s face. "Did Xiao Jie sleep?" "He sleeps at a fixed time every day..." Jian Mo''s voice is a little depressed. "Gu Beichen, can''t your son not be so self disciplined?" Gu Beichen raised his thin lips, "there''s no way. It''s all inherited from me." "..." Jian Mo wished he could throw his mobile phone directly into Gu Beichen''s face. Of course, if he''s in front. "I guess I''ll be back for a while..." Gu Beichen said softly, "you sleep first, huh?" "Oh..." Jane Mo answered angrily. People are greedy under the bath. In the past, Gu Beichen came back occasionally, followed by a few days or more. She didn''t come back for more than a month. She seems to be very used to it. Now that they are together, they basically sleep together every day... It''s strange for her to sleep by herself. Hearing the loss of Jian Mo, Gu Beichen stopped with deep eyes. Looking up slightly, the stars on the ink sky are particularly charming. "I''ll go back after I''m busy..." Gu Beichen said, and the smile on the corner of his mouth filled Junyan. He likes Jane Mo''s dependence on the little woman in front of him... That''s unique to him. "Don''t be too late." Jane Mo explained, "I went to bed. You came back early after you were busy." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered shallowly. When he heard Jian Mo hang up the phone, he received the line. After getting on the bus, Gu Beichen said indifferently, "track the last message." Xiao Jing looked at the mobile phone handed over by Gu Beichen, took it when his eyes were slightly frozen, then started the car and drove to the electronic information industry under the Emperor In the machine room, the person on duty secretly glanced at the back of his pocket standing in front of the window with both hands, and then several people exchanged eyes... The atmosphere didn''t dare to breathe. Xiao Jing connects Gu Beichen''s mobile phone to the device, slides the mouse with his finger and starts to check As time passed, Gu Beichen looked at the bright lights in Los Angeles and his eagle eyes were deep. When these things are over, he wants to take Mo''er out for a walk Take a look at the architectural designs of those famous masters, go to see her favorite design of Alvar Aalto, and feel the momentum of the famous masters while listening to an opera at Essen opera house. These... Are all what she wants? Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently scratched a thin smile. That smile just overflowed Junyan in an instant and reached the bottom of his eyes. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing''s voice interrupted Gu Beichen''s thoughts. He tilted his head slightly and didn''t speak. He just waited for Xiao Jing to continue. Xiao Jing shook his head, "the terminal is of Virtual Architecture..." Another master! Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deep, and then recovered his calm, "let''s go!" In fact, he had guessed before coming The other party doesn''t want him to know who it is, and he doesn''t feel hostility. It''s like a warning and advice Gu Beichen suddenly stopped in front of the car. The eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly and then opened: "find two people to follow Mo''er." "Huh?" Xiao Jing said softly, and then understood, "I''ll arrange it." Gu Beichen opened the door and wanted to go to the last time. Xiao Jing had sent a text message to Xiao Nan If you want to find two bodyguards in the dark, the person on the side of the natural dragon boss is the most suitable. It was early in the morning when Gu Beichen returned to the villa. He gently entered the bedroom and saw that the bedside lamp was on and Jane Mo had fallen asleep. He couldn''t help frowning slightly. Come forward, gently draw out the architectural books that Jian Mo still holds in his hand and put them aside. After dimming the light of the bedside lamp, Gu Beichen goes to the next bedroom to wash. When she came back after washing, Jane Mo had kicked off the quilt dishonestly. She was lying on her side, and the curve was perfect, so she couldn''t help but have a fire in her body Gu Beichen sighed and turned to take a shower next door Last night, because of traditional Chinese medicine, her body had suffered too much. He didn''t want to wake her up because of his bath expectation. After finally calming down, Gu Beichen went to bed and gently took Jian Mo into his arms. Watching her subconsciously turn over, she found a comfortable position in his arms and continued to sleep. The corners of her mouth smiled and turned off the light However, at the moment of turning off the light, Jane Mo''s left arm swung over... The crimson above was covered by darkness. The next day, the weather in Los Angeles still came under the warmth of dawn. Jane Jie got up very early, then took care of herself and went downstairs to sell Meng and play well with aunt Luo. Gu Beichen woke up very early, but Jian Mo was rarely awakened by the biological clock. When he moved gently, he turned lazily and continued to sleep. Looking at her sleepy appearance, Gu Beichen bent over painfully and kissed her gently on the cheek. Without disturbing her sleep, he went to the next door to wash. "Good morning, Daddy!" Jian Jie''s black pupil fell on Gu Beichen who came down from upstairs. "Good morning!" "Mommy is still in bed?" Gu Beichen sat down opposite Jian Jie, "HMM." Jane Jie glanced. "She also made an appointment with aunt Ning and come at ten o''clock!" Gu Beichen looked at the time. "There''s more than an hour left. It''s too late." With that, he changed the subject and asked about Jane Jie''s situation this week, just like all his fathers. Jian Jie answered one by one, during which he would also ask some questions he didn''t understand... Gu Beichen could give the most appropriate answer. Jian Jie''s eyes were full of admiration for Gu Beichen''s father, "Daddy, you''re great! If you ask Mommy these questions, she can''t answer..." Gu Beichen smiled, "she is responsible for giving birth to you, and I am responsible for taking you to grow!" The happy communication between father and son has been finished. It''s already 9:30. Jane Jie is going to go up and call Jane Mo, so she came downstairs lazily. "Why are you so tired?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly at Jian mo. "I guess I didn''t sleep well the night before..." Jane Mo frowned and said carelessly. Gu Beichen softened his eyes, looked at the tired face on Jian Mo''s face and said, "have something to eat first, huh?" Jane nodded. Aunt Luo has gone to prepare with a smile Jane Mo had just finished eating. Why did Ning he arrive one by one When Gu Beichen saw he Yining, he frowned slightly, then lowered his eyes and fell on 11''s face. His sight was suddenly deep. "Xiao Jie!" One by one, when he saw Jian Jie, he immediately opened his eyes, broke free, and ran to him. He Yining reluctantly looked at one by one, then looked at Gu Beichen and said with a smile, "Mr. Gu, I haven''t seen you for a long time." "Do you know each other?" Jane Mo was a little surprised. Gu Beichen looked indifferent, "I haven''t seen you for a long time..." Why Ning smiled and explained to Jian Mo, "I used to be in a circle, but later he family lost... Well, I naturally left that circle." Chapter 360 Jane Mo knows that the circle she said is a rich circle. In the rich and powerful families, except for those on the scale of emperor, they will not fluctuate so much... I''m afraid they are not strong enough. Are they easy to be eroded? Without asking any more questions, Jian Mo and he Yining have gone to the villa yard to get a barbecue rack with the help of the servant The two children haven''t seen each other for some time. They have been pestering Jane Jie one by one. Jane Jie rarely plays with them without being cold. Jian Mo thinks that Jian Jie is too lonely and arrogant since childhood. It''s good to have friends who can play around... Otherwise, isn''t his childhood boring? "I haven''t had time to congratulate you on waiting for your happiness..." he Yining looked at Gu Beichen, who was wearing home clothes and carrying some string of good meat products in his hand. "Thank you!" Jane Mo sincerely thanks. In due time, Gu Beichen put the tray in his hand on one side of the table and looked deeply at why he Ning. Why should I rather be generous and let him see. Jian Mo felt that Gu Beichen had something to ask, so she took the excuse to bring things back to the villa "Yunze''s?" Gu Beichen spoke indifferently. Although it was a question, it was still affirmative. 11. He Yining looks very similar. However, for Gu Beichen, who grew up with Li Yunze, the similarity between her eyebrows and eyes and Li Yunze when she was a child is still very high. "Obvious!" Why would you rather not hide it. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, "aren''t you afraid I''ll tell Yunze?" Why Ning smiled, "it doesn''t matter..." she put several strings of roast Intestines on the barbecue rack. "In fact, I''m not afraid of you." Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face coagulated slightly, and then recovered his calm indifference. He Yining is not afraid of Gu Beichen, because he can''t say! The twists and turns between her and Li Yunze are unknown to others. Gu Beichen may still know Jane Mo took the pickled vegetables out of the kitchen and went to the door. She saw that Xiao Jie didn''t know what to say one by one. She listened carefully, but the smile on her mouth was a little bad under the fairy of a little girl. Slightly frown, Jane foam slants her head... How do you feel a little like who one by one? With doubts, after Jane Mo brought the dishes, she shouted one by one to wash her hands with Xiao Jie and prepare to eat Gu Beichen stood in front of the French window with his pocket in one hand and called Li Yunze, "in the hospital?" "No..." Li Yunze drove the car. "No surgery was arranged at the weekend." "What''s up?" Gu Beichen then asked. Li Yunze said softly, "what''s the matter?" "Come and have dinner with me?" Gu Beichen''s voice was calm and indifferent. "It''s not over..." Li Yunze rubbed his eyebrows. After boss Erlong left last night, he had an idea about silence and went back to the laboratory to study until the morning. "I''ll go back later." Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, "really, but come?" "Beichen, are you busy?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips slightly picked, "no... take me to greet my uncle and aunt." Li Yunze didn''t think much and hung up after answering the voice. Gu Beichen looked through the French window at he Yining, who was busy turning the food with the servant. His eyes were deep and he turned. Jane Mo looked at him curiously, "who are you calling?" "Yunze!" Jane Mo frowned slightly, but the pupil of her eyes widened in an instant Gu Beichen''s thin lip side hooked up if there was no smile, it seems... Her little woman finally turned around. "One by one..." Jane Mo covered her mouth and asked, "is Yunze coming?" Gu Beichen shook his head. Jane Mo frowned. No wonder she felt a little familiar one by one. She was Li Yunze''s child Thinking of this, she glanced slightly at he Yining, "then why don''t you say it directly?" Xu is because she missed a few years. She can''t bear to miss the people around her. Gu Beichen looked indifferent, "four years ago, I failed to propose, you left, he laughed at me..." then, he stepped forward and motioned Jian Mo to go out together. Jane morleng didn''t move. She fanned her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen. The corners of her mouth twitched because of surprise "Are you really good at revenge?" Jian Mo muttered and followed Gu Beichen out of the villa. Although I don''t know why he Yining would hide Li Yunze, Jian Mo always feels that such things... Often hurt women. The weekend is always in a hurry. Gu Beichen is still very busy, but Jian Mo is also very satisfied to have milk bags with him over the weekend. Jian Mo supported the design desk with his hand and the drawing pen against his chin. He still thought about Li Yunze''s daughter one by one. "Dong Dong!" Jane Mo returned to her senses and saw mu Xiaoran come in with a bunch of champagne roses. The corners of her mouth cracked and smiled. Jane Mo put down her drawing pen and got up to pick up the flowers. "Sister Mo," Mu Xiaoran leaned on the design table, "why did President Gu start sending roses again today?" "Meat hemp..." with a sweet smile in her mouth, Jane Mo went to the tea room and planned to arrange the flowers. Mu Xiaoran took the bottle and then water, and Jian Mo began to open the package "Ah --" Suddenly, Jane Mo screamed. With a bang, mu Xiaoran was frightened. The glass bottle in his hand slipped and directly hit the ground and broke. "What''s the matter?" When someone ran in when he heard something outside, he saw Jane Mo''s face was very white and staring. Mu Xiaoran also saw the things in the flower package falling on the ground, and immediately turned white with fear. Daxiong and Qiao Zirong ran in and frowned when they saw that the flowers in the package had just come out and were still red... But they were dead mice. After Jian Mo was frightened, she swallowed involuntarily Da Xiong has asked the cleaner to clean up and ordered the cleaner to disinfect the tea room. "Mo Mo, are you okay?" Mo Xiaoya came forward and asked with concern. Jane Mo shook her head and looked at mu Xiaoran with a bad face. "I''m fine..." Mu Xiaoran quickly shook his head. "Sister Mo, you look a little ugly." Jane Mo pulled a tough smile and said she was fine. After cleaning up and returning to the office, Jane Mo has been restless Everyone has something to fear. She has been afraid of mice and soft bugs since childhood... Her heart jumped uncontrollably at the thought of holding that nest of dead mice. "Dong Dong!" When the knock came, Jian Mo''s heart was shocked suddenly, and her eyes were raised in fear Because the door was not closed, Su Junli came in and frowned at the fear at the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes, "Mo Mo, what''s the matter? Your face doesn''t look very good..." Jian Mo''s accident was su Junli, who smiled with a sigh of relief. "It''s all right... It''s just a daze. I was suddenly startled by you." She swallowed again, pressed down her beating heart and asked, "didn''t you go to city a? When did you come back?" "I came back last night..." after su Junli answered, he just stared at Jian Mo and said, "Mo Mo, you forget that I majored in psychology? What happened?" Chapter 361 Jian Mo looked at Su Jun leaving for a while, then drooped his shoulders and told him what had just happened. Su Jun Li frowned slightly, and there was a dignified look on his warm face. "You mean... The flowers should have been sent by Gu Beichen, but they were tampered with?" Jane Mo nodded with a bad face. "Didn''t you think," Su Junli calmly questioned, "maybe someone knew Gu Beichen sent you flowers, so he thought you were unprepared and deliberately?" Jian Mo looked at Su Jun Li, and her face was at a loss Su Junli looked at Jian Mo anxiously, "have you offended anyone recently?" "No......" Jane Mo frowned and hesitated. Su Junli frowned at Jian Mo''s appearance. "By the way, you''re here..." Jane Mo slapped her eyes curiously and asked. Su Jun left the end and lived with Jian Mo for more than four years. Even if she didn''t analyze her behavior and expression, she didn''t continue to ask because she was too familiar with her and knew she didn''t want to tangle with that question. "The concert hall''s first concert this Friday night," Su Junli said, taking out the invitation. "As a designer, are you sure to come?" Jian Mo took it, looked at the well-made invitation, picked up the eyebrow corner and said, "as a designer, I don''t know whether I will appear, but as a friend, I... Will arrive!" "Come with Gu Beichen..." Su Junli smiled softly. "I''ll leave you two places." Jane nodded without refusing. Just because of what just happened in my heart, I always feel a little uneasy Su Junli is worried about Jian Mo, but she also knows that she is strong... She doesn''t want him to worry, as if he doesn''t have a position to worry. "Let''s have dinner later?" Jane Mo looked at the time and it was almost time to get off work. Su Jun nodded with a smile and didn''t refuse. At the right time, Sun Ke came in with a handful of flowers in his hand "Mo Mo, this is probably what your Gu always sent." Sun Keyang raised his hand to write the card. Jane Mo remembered that there was no card in the bunch of flowers just now. Because she didn''t think much, she forgot it for a time. "President Yu has asked the security guard of the building to adjust video surveillance," Sun Kefu said again. "Although I don''t know whether it''s a prank or something, it''s always good to check it." Jane nodded at the corner of her lower lip. Sun Ke and Su Jun Li nodded slightly and said hello, then turned and went out. Jian Mo still held the bunch of stars in her hand and opened the card with Gu Beichen''s vigorous font: I miss you when I''m busy! The short words were like a tranquilizer. Jian Mo''s heart, which had just been flustered, gradually calmed down. Su Junli looked at the change of Jian Mo''s expression, his sight was slightly deep, and there was a faint smile at the corners of his mouth... Now Mo Mo is the real her. In those years in Britain, it seems that she is happy and hard every day, but her smile always lacks her soul And now Su Junli secretly laughed at himself. He was never the person in her life, so that even if he stayed together, he couldn''t always be with her. ¡­¡­ The dark room looked treacherous in broad daylight. Gu Beichen sat on the sofa, and the smoke caught in the middle of his fingers burned like a ghost fire "Ah --" There was a scream, which was filled with anxiety. Gu Beichen sat there indifferently. After taking a cigarette, his slender fingers lit the butt and flicked the ash. Xiao Jing stood aside, his face unchanged, but his eyes were sharp. Normal means Chen Shao has no patience "It''s really none of my business..." the beaten man wailed, "I... I''m just sending flowers... Ah..." Gu Beichen looked coldly at the place where the shadow flashed, twisted out the cigarette butts in the ashtray, and said indifferently, "when are you willing to say, when will you stop!" "Yes!" There was a respectful voice. Then came the sound of wailing through the darkness. Xiao Jing seemed to be finally unable to stand it. He made a "quack" sound by holding his knuckles, and then stepped forward. "I''ll give you one last chance," Xiao Jing said impatiently. "Who ordered you?" "I don''t... well!" As the man spoke, Xiao Jing kicked him fiercely, "hard mouth? Ok... I hope you can keep hard mouth." In the dark, the sound of water came. Then, there was a voice full of death under suffocation, sobbing in horror Gu Beichen didn''t have half an expression on his cold face. He just took out his mobile phone with a slight sigh, opened the screen and sent a message to Jane Mo: have you eaten? Jane Mo replied with a smile: I''m eating. Has my husband eaten it? Gu Beichen was a little surprised. Something like that happened in the morning. It''s a good thing that Mo''er still has an appetite to eat... It''s just that she feels good? President Gu: also eating! Jane Mo skimmed her lips: it''s fake at first sight Jane Mo then replied: I''m going to the company near emperor for a meeting this afternoon. Do you want me to bring you lunch later? Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, and he simply replied with a word: good! "Five minutes..." Gu Beichen pressed out his cell phone and spoke at the same time. However... It doesn''t take five minutes. Under Xiao Jing''s cruel means, not many people have the will to fight "Yes, it''s brother Hao, Shen Hao from the Southern District..." The frightened man gasped as he slowly faced the death, "he said that someone wanted to scare Jane mo... So, that''s why I sent the dead mouse..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "I really can''t bear to expose your lies." "Bang!" "Ow --" Gu Beichen''s words fell, and after a heavy ring, there was a dull sound of pain. Gu Beichen left the dark room and went out. It was like a paradise night "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jingqing. Gu Beichen kept walking to the elevator, "this man''s mouth is so hard, it''s not simple." He suddenly stopped, and the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly, "it reminds me of the last injury to the South..." Xiao Jing''s face was dignified. Unexpectedly, he arranged a bodyguard for Mrs. Shao on the first day, "it''s my dereliction of duty." Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Such a low and rotten tone is a warning. It''s better to hide people''s ears and eyes Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing left heaven night, and the follow-up questions naturally followed by the Dragon owl. Now even a little accident, Gu Beichen dare not take it lightly. When mu Xiaoran told him that Mo''er was frightened when she received the flowers, he couldn''t help feeling distressed... All she has to bear now is because of him. Sitting in the car, Gu Beichen looked at the passing street view outside the window, and his sight was deep Is it so difficult for him to give her a comfortable life? Chapter 362 After eating, Jian Mo and Su Junli packed Gu Beichen one "I''ll take you there?" Su Junli asked. Jane Mo shook her head. "I''ll drive there. There''s a company nearby that has something to deal with in the afternoon." "OK..." Su Jun answered with a warm smile, "I''ll wait for you at the weekend." Jane Mo nodded with a smile. Su Junli watched Jian Mo enter Lingyu international before getting on the bus. He didn''t start the car and left. He just took out his cell phone and dialed a group of numbers "I''m Su Junli..." Su Junli opened his mouth after the phone was connected. "Can you do me a favor?" "What''s the matter?" There was a teasing voice on the phone, "when did you, Su sanshao, talk to me so politely? It seems that you have nothing to do without going to the three treasures hall." "Indeed..." Su Jun said without detour, "a friend of mine is in trouble. You happen to be in charge of this area." As soon as the man heard it, he said jokingly, "it''s a woman at first sight..." Su Junli sighed, "help or not?" "Help!" The man said quickly, "but what''s the matter?" Su Junli roughly talked about Jian Mo''s receipt of dead mouse flowers, and then said, "you can adjust the monitoring near Lingyu international to see who it is?" As soon as the man heard it, he was obviously a little dignified, "your friend, this is the third time today." "What do you mean?" Su Jun frowned. "Today, someone reported that they received a bouquet containing dead mice... Plus what you said, the third one." Su Jun left and frowned more tightly Originally, he thought it was someone who targeted foam, but now it seems... It seems that things are much more complicated? Jian Mo went back to Xiangyu to get the things he needed in the afternoon and drove directly to the emperor. Enter Gu Beichen''s exclusive elevator and go directly to the top floor "Young lady!" Susan greeted Jane Mo with a smile. Jane Mo also responded with a smile. She felt unclear about the change of the name of her left and right hands around Gu Beichen. They know that she and Gu Beichen are married by contract for two years, and they probably know all the things between Gu Beichen and her best... Now they accept her because of that person. Not only did he accept her, but also because... They were his confidants. That''s nice When you are tired, at least there are people you can trust. "Eat first!" Jane Mo put the lunch box on the tea table and looked at the busy Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen didn''t refuse either. After closing the documents in his hand, he went to wash his hands, sat down next to Jane Mo and took the chopsticks she handed over. "Ah Chen, if you don''t eat on time, don''t you think it''s not persuasive when you teach me a lesson in the future?" Jane Mo glanced at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "but I have no stomach disease." "Aren''t you going to roll your eyes with Jane again?" Seeing Jian Mo''s dissatisfaction, Gu Beichen just leaned over, pecked at the corner of her mouth, and then continued to eat and said, "I want to take good care of you." Jane Mo''s heart suddenly melted I don''t know what other women look like when they face their lover, but now she has no resistance to Gu Beichen''s love words. In this case, the head is often funny, and the questions you wanted to ask have been forgotten Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s small uncomfortable appearance. The eagle''s eyes were deep and full of joy. In this world... If a person with a heart really wants to deal with him, in fact... There is no need to do anything. Just catch Jane mo... He is willing to exchange everything! "Jun Li invited us to see the first concert of Adrian concert hall at the weekend..." Jane Mo suddenly said. Gu Beichen''s eyes were suddenly deep. "Were you eating with him at that time?" "Yes!" Jane Mo has no hidden answer. Gu beichenjun''s face is so indifferent, but his eyes are already deep Mo''er didn''t want him to worry and didn''t tell him about being intimidated... He knew it clearly, but she couldn''t mention it because she didn''t want him to know. At that time, he should be with her... Not su Junli? There was guilt in his heart, but Gu Beichen hid it very quickly and showed nothing. Jian Mo didn''t find anything wrong with Gu Beichen. After all, if he didn''t want people to see his emotions, most people couldn''t see it When Gu Beichen finished eating, Jian Mo lay on the sofa and narrowed Gu Beichen''s legs as a pillow for a while I don''t know why. Recently, she seems to feel very tired and can''t sleep enough. Gu Beichen looked at the time. It was already half past one... When Jian Mo was sleeping, he asked him to call her at this time. However, seeing her tired face, he couldn''t bear to "Mo''er..." After all, Gu Beichen still shouted Jian mo. If you don''t call this little woman and delay her work, she will be angry with him... She has always been independent and doesn''t want to cling to his tree like dodder and gradually lose herself. "Huh?" Jane Mo hummed and turned over, but she didn''t wake up. Jane turned over, and her lips had touched the sensitive place... Gu Beichen''s body suddenly stretched! A man''s body is sensitive, not to mention the woman he loves lying on his legs? Gu Beichen''s Adam''s apple rolled up and down. Looking at Jane Mo''s charming appearance, he wanted to turn her over and overwhelm her directly. Unfortunately He can only think about it now. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen endured his tight body and shouted again in a low voice. However, because of the feeling of gradually swelling, his voice was obviously a little hoarse. Jane Mo turned over uneasily and slowly opened her eyes Under the dim vision of sleepy eyes, gradually, Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face came into the bottom of her eyes, "ah Chen..." she shouted softly, and then closed her eyes again. Gu Beichen''s eyebrows tightened gradually. Jane Mo is very self disciplined on weekdays and will never be delayed by sleep during working hours... However, she is obviously sleepy at the moment. "Mo''er?" Gu Beichen shouted again. Suddenly Jane Mo suddenly opened her eyes, first mechanically fanned, and then sat up. "What time is it?" "There are more than ten minutes and two o''clock!" Gu Beichen frowned and replied. "Ah..." Jian Mo exclaimed, "didn''t you ask you to call me up at half an hour?" Then she hurried to the lounge in the office to tidy up, and then hurriedly said "see you in the evening" with Gu Beichen and rushed out of the office. I almost ran into Xiao Jing who was coming in Fortunately, Xiao Jing''s skill was good. She didn''t let Jane Mo hit her and held her. No, no matter right or wrong... His loyal dog boss must judge him wrong. "Chen Shao, madam Shao, this is..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at Jian Mo, whose figure had flashed into the elevator. There was a kind of hairy feeling in his heart... It seemed that there was something wrong, but there was no! Chapter 363 Jian Mo hurried out of the emperor and drove to the China entertainment media group, which was going to have a meeting... Fortunately, she was close and was not afraid of traffic jam at noon. "Squeak -" Jane Mo parked the car and looked at the time. There were ten minutes left. She breathed out secretly. After Jane Mo got off the bus and cleaned up her appearance, she walked calmly to the building. "Please wait a minute..." Jane Mo just saw an elevator about to close and shouted. The elevator door opened again. Jian Mo came to her and saw Shen Chu pressing the open key. Shen Chu didn''t expect that it was Jian mo. the two people looked at each other like this, and they all forgot their actions. "No?" Shen Chu asked coldly. Jane Mo went in and said politely, "thank you." No matter what kind of politeness she has with Shen Chu, Jane Mo won''t be less. The elevator closed with a crash. Jian Mo looked at the number key and frowned slightly when she saw that the floor she was going to was pressed "You''re here for a press conference, aren''t you?" Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo coldly and asked indifferently. Jane Mo quietly hooked her lips. "Are... You too?" Shen Chu didn''t look at Jian Mo, but looked at the shadow of two people reflected in the smooth mirror of the elevator. "Didn''t Beichen tell you? I''m now a designer of JK design department." Jane Mo smiled, "ah Chen never mentioned irrelevant women in front of me..." Shen Chu suddenly turned his head and looked at Jian mo. before he spoke, there was a "Ding" sound, and the elevator had arrived. Jian Mo glanced at Shen Chu, and the elevator door opened slowly at the moment when they faced each other "Instead of thinking about what doesn''t belong to him, it''s better to strive for what he can get..." Jian Mo said seriously, and walked out of the elevator with a steady step. For Shen Chu, she only hates being a rival in love... Except this layer, in fact, she doesn''t really bother her. Shen Chu got out of the elevator, looked at Jian Mo''s arrogant back and squeezed his hand. Then he took a deep breath and followed up. There was some tension in the meeting room. Huaye is expected to invest in an indoor shooting base within three years. This is a meeting to compare the draft of architectural design bidding. The meeting is held internally and has not been made public yet As the largest media group in Los Angeles, Huayu''s construction bidding will certainly attract the attention of Los Angeles media again. Listening to the person in charge saying the precautions, Jian Mo recorded and accepted Shen Chu''s cold and sarcastic eyes. Look up Most people are recording what the person in charge said, while individuals rely entirely on their brains... Of course, this includes Shen Chu. Jian Mo doesn''t mind Shen Chu''s contempt. For work, she doesn''t like to be strong beyond her ability It''s not that she can''t remember, but that she doesn''t want to cause inconvenience to both sides because of her own mistakes. "Do you have any questions?" The person in charge looked around and asked. The crowd shook their heads and said there was no problem. "The comparison draft is set at the end of the month, and the specific date will be notified..." the person in charge said, "so I hope you can prepare in advance, don''t hold a temporary meeting, and you can''t hand in anything." He was half joking, just the attitude of the media. Everyone smiled and said they understood "It''s hard for everyone to break up the meeting." Everyone got up and left after the person in charge got up. Jian Mo and Shen Chu stand together waiting for the elevator. There are gossip people who have looked at them frequently A Gu Beichen''s wife, a Gu Beichen''s first love girlfriend... All came from UCL. In a place with a good gossip atmosphere, it seems that everyone doesn''t think it''s appropriate. On the contrary, Jian Mo and Shen Chu are both confident and arrogant... No matter what they think, no one shows at the moment. When the elevator arrived, they entered the elevator with several people in front and behind. At the moment when the elevator door was closed, someone outside made a cold hiss "I''m really curious about how the two of them will fight." What others think, Jane Mo is not in the mood to know that she is not gossip, but to compete for architectural design. "Jian Mo......" Just as Jane Mo was about to open the door, the voice came from behind. She looked back and saw that it was Shen Chu and frowned secretly. "Shall we make a bet?" Shen Chu asked coldly. Jane Mo frowned slightly, "what do you mean?" "If you don''t win this time, I''ll take it as a bet. If you don''t win this time, I''ll lose it..." said Chu Chen Jian Mo really wants to ask Shen Chu, did you go out without a brain or forgot to take medicine? "He''s my husband. How can I disappear?" Jane Mo said coldly, "besides, why should I bet with you?" "Why, are you afraid?" Shen Chu''s arrogant sneer. Jian Mo sighed, "first of all, ah Chen is a person with free thought, not your bet. Second... If you think I''m afraid, just be afraid." "If you have to choose between career and ah Chen..." Jian Mo obviously saw a trace of forbearance in the bottom of Shen Chu''s eyes. "I choose to give up my career... Because ah Chen accounts for the largest proportion in my heart compared with any." She smiled calmly, "work hard and wish you good luck!" The words fall, Jian Mo calmly takes back his sight, opens the door and gets on the car. Shen Chu didn''t expect Jian Mo to say so. Her breathing gradually became a little heavy. Looking at Audi, who integrated into the traffic flow, she gradually bit her lip. Jane Mo said... She would give up her career and choose Beichen. And she With a self deprecating smile, Shen Chu slowly turned and walked to his car. From the beginning, she was wrong... But now she can only pretend that everything is right and wrong again and again! The car shuttles through the streets of Los Angeles, one left and one right. Jian Mo was angry with Shen Chu''s words... And the more he thought about it, the more angry he became. No matter whether her design will win or lose this time, no matter how powerful Shen Chu is... But why should Shen Chu bet on ah Chen? No one is someone else''s bet! Just thinking, suddenly Looking at the rear of the car that was about to be intimately contacted by her car, Jane Mo suddenly an elf and subconsciously stepped on the brake. "Squeak -" "Bang!" Listening to the sound of the collision, Jane Mo shook her body on the seat and couldn''t help staring. It''s still a little late She swallowed it secretly. After looking at the reversing mirror, Jane Mo got out of the car and hurried forward "I''m sorry..." Jian Mo saw the driver''s window open and took the lead in bending down to compensate. "Excuse me, how do you solve it? It''s OK to repair or compensate... I''m sorry!" Shi Shaoqin sat in the back seat. He looked through the gap in the front seat and looked at Jian mo. his face was completely guilty. The corners of his mouth couldn''t help but slowly evoke an incomprehensible smile Chapter 364 Morson looked at Shi Shaoqin in the rearview mirror and said calmly, "Miss, you''re driving too carelessly..." he seemed dissatisfied, "our car was parked in a temporary parking space, and you hit it..." "I''m sorry..." Jian Mo felt more and more guilty. "You see, this is also a temporary parking, and the delay will also affect others... How can you compensate?" Mosen looked back at Shi Shaoqin and said coldly, "my boss said forget it. Please drive carefully next time." Jane Mo listened and hurriedly left her contact information, "that... I''m really sorry." After apologizing again, Jane Mocai turned around and went to her car. But when she passed the back seat, she looked at it inexplicably But because of the solar film, she could see nothing but a figure. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow Phoenix eyes narrowed slightly, and a strange smile gradually filled the bottom of his eyes... Such a smile, without any temperature. "It''s fun, isn''t it?" Shi Shaoqin spoke quietly. His voice was gentle and soft... Bewitching people, but cold nerves. Morson didn''t answer, because he knew Qin Shao didn''t need him to answer. In fact, they followed Jane Mo since she left Huaye, but later drove in front of her As Qin Shao said, no matter what Jian Mo and Shen Chu talked about, the thinking of a normal woman will be slightly biased because it involves her own man. As long as he has a good grasp of the speed This collision is inevitable. It''s just that Mosen doesn''t understand... What''s Qin Shao''s intention to do this? Shi Shaoqin watched Jian Mo''s car pass them and leave, and his sight fell on a black car with a long distance. There was an almost invisible smile on the corners of his beautiful mouth "What happened to the emperor?" Shi Shaoqin always followed Jian Mo''s car. "It''s hard to acquire the remaining retail shares," Morson also restarted the car. "After all, the emperor''s shares are now appreciated and of great value." Shi Shaoqin restrained his eyes. "It''s just that the benefits are not enough..." he said gently, "take it three times higher than the market price!" Morson frowned slightly. "That..." he didn''t go on, but answered, "yes!" For Qin Shao, money... Is probably the most indispensable thing in the world. "In addition," Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin from the rearview mirror, "Gu mohuai estimated that he might want to bring Jian truss into the Gu family." Shi Shaoqin smiled slightly at the corner of his mouth, lowered his eyes, fell on the slender jade like hand placed on the overlapping legs, and said: "what he likes most is to mess up his family... Let him play slowly." After a pause, Shi Shaoqin Feng''s eyes narrowed slightly, "cover it up for him when necessary... Otherwise, it''s bad if the game can''t play." Now Chen is not what he was in those days. He has to spend more time playing games with Chen! There was a strange smell in the car. Morson occasionally peeped into the back seat from the rearview mirror, then converged his sight and drove calmly. No one can guess what Qin Shao is thinking every moment. His thinking... Shows a nervous coldness. Morsen suddenly looked forward to the contest between Gu Beichen and Qin Shao ¡­¡­ Jian Mo drove to the garage first and planned to keep Gu Beichen from finding out before going back in the afternoon Just after taking a taxi to the company, Tang Haoyang asked her about Huaye. Xiangyu also attaches great importance to the film and Television City as a big project... Jian Mo is good at this type of project. In the last emperor''s bidding, the first shot of Jian Mo''s return did not start because of Ding Dang Although after the relationship with Gu Beichen was exposed, Gu Beichen said that he only wanted to leave Jian Mo to him, so he selfishly stopped her participation and took the responsibility on him, it is true that Jian Mo didn''t make great achievements after he came back. "Mr. Yu said you should decide whether you want an assistant this time..." Tang Haoyang looked at Jian Mo and said. After two events before and after the emperor, Yu Ziyun didn''t want several people to carry out the project at the same time. Jane Mo knew their worry, thought for a moment and said, "I can......" she said, half joking, "just review the basic things." Tang Haoyang nodded and said, "the police replied..." "Huh?" Jane Mo subconsciously wondered. "You received such a bouquet in the morning. Today, three people in the office building and you in this area received it..." Tang Haoyang said. "The police said that they could not rule out the malicious behavior of abnormal retaliation against the society." Jane Mo frowned. "Because the three people who received all recently had an affair with celebrities, and all received flowers every day..." Tang Haoyang said with some worry. Jane Mo didn''t expect the result to be like this. She couldn''t laugh or cry. "Mr. Yu suggested you not to come here recently," Tang Haoyang continued. "First, it''s not long before the end of the month. Your main focus recently is on entertainment. The other..." Tang Haoyang paused slightly before saying, "security issues." And this safety... Is not only the personal safety of Jian Mo, but also the safety of design drawings. This time, if the situation of emperor appears again in Huaye, it will be a great blow to Jian Mo or Xiangyu. Jane Mo was in a dignified mood, but when she thought about herself, if she handled entertainment alone, she really didn''t have time to deal with other projects. She simply nodded at last Before leaving work, Jane Mo handed over the follow-up problems of the Convention and Exhibition Center to Andy, then packed up the things to use, took a taxi and went to the garage. Just as the talent arrived, the phone rang Seeing Gu Beichen, Jian Mo looked guilty at the car driven out of the paint baking room, and then picked it up. "Are you off duty?" Gu Beichen''s low and magnetic voice came slowly. "I''ve just finished my work and I''m going back." Jane Mo secretly spit out her tongue, "well, when will you come back?" "There''s something wrong with the foreign company. I''ll deal with it with Xiao Jing later..." Gu Beichen said. "It''s estimated that it will take a few days to come back." "Oh..." Jane Mo answered angrily, and then said, "you''d better be busy. I''ve been busy lately." Gu Beichen''s thin lips scratched a thin smile, "OK..." "Remember to eat!" Jane Mo explained. "If my wife reminds me, I will remember..." Gu Beichen said with deep eyes. Jane Mo smiled at the corners of her mouth and raised her eyebrows proudly. "Mr. Gu, do you know your wife is so short of love?" As soon as Gu Beichen heard this, he immediately filled his eyes with a smile. Following Jian Mo''s words, he said: "well, this problem is very serious. I''ll have a long talk with my wife in bed later..." Jane froth''s face turned red with a ''Teng''. Why doesn''t she learn well? Every time you molest Gu Beichen, it must be her who is molested at last Chapter 365 When night fell, the roller of the plane rubbed against the take-off runway and made a harsh sound. Gu Beichen looked at the words "La" gradually disappearing from his eyes through the small window with worry Xiao Jinggang just wanted to say something to Gu Beichen, but when he saw the stretched lines on his cold side face, he sighed quietly, without disturbing his thoughts. Everyone has weaknesses, and he starts with Chen Shao. Chen Shao doesn''t have any But now, Chen Shao''s weakness is too obvious! Xiao Jing suddenly didn''t know whether it was good or bad Obviously, a simple foam around is good for chenshao. But now it''s a troubled time, really? Xiao Jing doesn''t know. Maybe it can''t be clear until everything becomes clear. "Don''t look..." Li Xiaoyue rolled her eyes. "Girl, it''s not suitable for you to feel sad about spring and autumn." Jian Mo leaned on the iron fence outside the airport and looked up at the planes climbing one by one. After a long time, her neck was stiff. Drooping his eyes, he slightly moved his neck, and Jane Mo''s face twitched with pain. Li Xiaoyue leaned on the hood of the car with her hand on it and asked curiously, "what''s the matter with you?" She frowned. "It won''t be your husband. What''s the matter with you? Did you run away angrily?" Jian Mo looked back and stared at Li Xiaoyue mercilessly, then said, "I don''t know what''s wrong, just want to come and have a look..." After hanging up with Gu Beichen at that time, she was inexplicably sad. In due time, Li Xiaoyue called her, and then she subconsciously asked her to come here In fact, she didn''t know which plane Gu Beichen took... Anyway, she just watched one by one climb and stared at it for more than an hour. "Are women in love prone to inexplicable sadness about gain and loss?" Li Xiaoyue suddenly asked in a long and profound voice. Jian Mo didn''t find Li Xiaoyue''s hidden emotion. She just laughed at herself and went to her side, leaned against the hood, and her vision still fell on the runway "I don''t know anyone else." Jian Mo said, "I didn''t feel that way when I was with Zixiao... But I can''t say I didn''t like him at that time." Li Xiaoyue is the person who accompanied her all the way. It is clear that what Jian Mo said is true "Even if I fell in love with Gu Beichen four years ago," Jian Mo gradually moved up as a plane climbed, "I don''t feel like this now. It seems that a little thing can touch sadness, Xiaoyue... I''m afraid." Li Xiaoyue glances at Jian mo. she knows the girl''s character. Such sadness is not suitable for her... But at this moment, she can''t see affectation. Some worried frowned, "what happened?" Jane Mo looked back and smiled. Looking at Li Xiaoyue, she said, "nothing has happened. He is so good to me that I even need to repay him with more love... Xiaoyue, he treats me differently from the outside world. I can feel his kindness. It''s just for me." "Then what are you hypocritical about?" Li Xiaoyue has a black line on her face. Jian Mo shrugged, depressed her discomfort and deliberately said, "stimulate you..." "Wipe, too much!" Li Xiaoyue glanced at her dissatisfied eyes, "wait for my sister to find a rough job with Yan Haoqi. OK, come and compete with your chamber again!" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "Wait and see..." she stood up. "Let''s go and eat." "You finally want to eat? I''m starving to death..." Li Xiaoyue turned her eyes and got up, "where to eat?" "Follow me. I''ll take you to a good place." Jian Mo got into the car and finally took Li Xiaoyue to ''another meal''. Li Xiaoyue is an easy-going person. Seeing Fang Xilan, she especially likes this virtuous and gentle woman who can cook. "How did you get to this place?" Li Xiaoyue nodded as she ate. "It''s a real home flavor... It''s hard to compete with my mother." Jane Mo just said that it was the widow of a friend of Gu Beichen who opened the restaurant without assistance... She didn''t say much. "Oh, woman... Always the strongest person to stand." Li Xiaoyue sighed. Jane Mo also felt that when everyone thought women would fall, they would stand straighter than anyone else. "Have you contacted Mo Shaochen recently?" Jane Mo asked suddenly. Li Xiaoyue felt a strange emotion at the bottom of her eyes, but Jian Mo didn''t see it because she hung her eyes. "Recently, there was a case of cooperation with others..." Li Xiaoyue raised her eyebrows. "Niu Er, from the perspective of work... He conquered me again." "Tut tut..." Jian Mo teased, "I think... He conquered your heart, so everything can conquer you?" Li Xiaoyue is not hypocritical. She has nothing to hide from Mo Shaochen from worship to love. So it''s hard for a good man not to like it? Jane Mo''s joke is a joke, but she is still worried Mo Shaochen likes Shen Chu. She knows. She seems quite persistent... Xiao Yue has been hurt like that. It doesn''t matter on the surface, but for women, who really doesn''t care? Two things, if Xiaoyue is destined to be hurt, she would rather Xiaoyue worship Mo Shaochen After dinner, Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue went home separately. Li Xiaoyue asks Jian Mo to live with her these days, but she wants to catch up with the design, so Jian Mo refuses. After returning to the villa, Jane Mo was sleepless Recently, her situation is basically like this. She either doesn''t sleep. Once she sleeps, she can''t wake up. Holding the mobile phone, Jian Mo''s fingers flicked past the text message Gu Beichen sent to her after she came back Many are full of love. Looking at the photos that Gu Beichen sent from every place when he went abroad, he finally looked at the photos by the Seine River, but his mind wandered to the riverside of Los Angeles. He asked her to stay with her all his life. Sight shift, the ring falling on the ring finger of the left hand It is said that it is the nearest place to the heart. If you catch it, you will catch the other party''s heart. Jane Mo''s mouth gradually overflowed with a smile, which was sweet... And gradually dispelled the sentimentality of the night. Jane Mo turned her eyes back, her fingers left the upper reaches of the screen, and a text message was sent out: good night, husband! At the end, a "kiss" expression was added. Knowing that he was on the plane, he couldn''t see it at the moment, but he could see her sweet message at the thought of the plane. His busy mood would be very good. Jane Mo couldn''t help but deepen her smile. Turn off the lights, lie down... Close your eyes and get ready to sleep. Jane Mo subconsciously scratched her left arm. There was no red there... But she still itched occasionally. She didn''t care much. After scratching for a while, Jane Mo turned over and gradually entered her dream at night with her love for Gu Beichen Chapter 366 The huge concert hall is empty. There is only a white grand piano in the center of the stage A strong light hit on it, and Su Junli slowly raised his hand When the finger falls on the black-and-white piano key, it is like a clear spring gradually infiltrating the voice of the people, flowing out clearly. Li Jinxi stood in the computer room and looked down through the visiting window at Su Junli playing the piano. She was enchanting and had the self-confidence of arrogance. "Adrian, how is this song..." Chen Xuan frowned slightly, and there was a trace of doubt on the face of ruffian Qi and evil spirit. Li Jinxi glanced at him, "people with hurt feelings... You won''t understand." "..." Chen Xuan rolled his eyes, hugged Li Jinxi and smiled, "why, do you still want my feelings to be hurt?" As he spoke, the tip of his nose had been against Li Jinxi''s cheek, and the hot air in his mouth gently gushed out, showing warmth. Li Jinxi turned from a strong woman into a little sheep in an instant. His fingers touched Chen Xuan''s chest and drew a circle. After feeling that he was breathing abnormally, he suddenly pushed him away "How heartless!" Chen Xuan was dissatisfied. Li Jinxi raised her eyebrows. "You grew up in a pile of women. Are you afraid of my injury?" She hissed coldly. At the right time, Su Jun lifted his finger slowly when he drew the last note From beginning to end, all movements and music are interpreted perfectly. However, under the perfect everything, a heart gradually shrinks... Only those who have loved can understand the pain. If loving someone is gnawing at the wound in the dark, can he not love at the beginning? Su Junli asked himself, but this question... Never has an answer. On Friday, after more than four years of shelving, Adrian Concert Hall finally ushered in Su Junli''s first solo concert. The media in Los Angeles reported the concert in an all-round way, and what people expected most was that all the tracks of the performance were in the confidential stage before the beginning, so that people expected more. Jane Mo changed her clothes and prepared to go to the concert hall. Because Gu Beichen hasn''t come back from abroad, Jane Mo simply called Li Xiaoyue to listen together. Unfortunately, Li Xiaoyue went to Linshi to contact the witness of the trial case, and couldn''t come back for a while Jane Mo had no choice but to see it alone. Sitting in the position with excellent field of vision in the first row, looking at the stage pulled by the curtain, Jane Mo''s mouth gradually spread a smile. This is the place she designed and where her relationship with Su Jun began In fact, there are many things worth remembering in life. I was thinking that someone was sitting next to me. Jian Mo subconsciously looked sideways and saw a man wearing a white suit, warm and noble all over, sitting there calmly He is not the kind of man who is amazing at first sight, but he has an attractive temperament, which is integrated with him... People will feel very excited at first sight. It is said that "to be beautiful and filial", this man simply deduces white incisively and vividly. The man felt that the people around him were looking at him. He tilted his head and nodded to Jane Mo with a warm smile. Jane Mo wants to tell him that this position is with her However, considering that Gu Beichen couldn''t come, he didn''t mention it in the end. Jane Mo responded with a polite smile, and then her eyes fell on the table At the right moment, the mobile phone vibrated. She took it out and saw Gu Beichen''s text message. The corners of her mouth subconsciously smiled. The man in white looked at Jian Mo calmly, from the slight alienation under a pair of self-confidence to the little woman''s posture when reading the text message at the moment... Almost without thinking, he could guess who was the person who started the text message? Convergence of the eyes, white man''s eyes fell in front... From beginning to end, corners of the his mouth are filled with the a warm smile. That kind of smile is different from Su Jun''s melancholy warmth in the sun, but a softness that permeates people''s hearts. At the beginning of the concert, for Su Junli, a pianist who would make people pregnant, an auditory feast made everyone feel that time passed too fast "The last song," Su Junli said softly, "give it to her in my dream!" "Wow..." In the concert hall, there was a sudden sound of surprise. After all, there are more or less rumors about Su Junli''s affair, but he has never responded positively... I didn''t expect him to speak before the last song today. The strong light hit him. He smiled gently at the corners of his mouth. While his fingers played soft and soothing music, he said slowly: "in a person''s life, there will be many people passing by, but there is always one... Her foot stepped too deep in the bottom of your heart, so that people go away, but that footprint can no longer disappear from your heart." With that, Su Junli slightly tilted his head and looked at the audience. Because of the contrast of the light, he couldn''t see anything, as if he could see something again "I hope she in my dream can be so happy..." Soft and sweet, but with a slight sadness, the music slowly overflowed. Gradually, in addition to the sound of piano, only the sound of everyone holding their breath came occasionally in the whole concert hall. Jian Mo quietly watched Su Junli playing the piano... Obviously, she had seen it too many times in the sun and moon in Britain for more than four years, but this time... She seemed to have never seen him play before. Compared with the prince who hesitated in the sun on the edge of the sea taro flower field, Su Junli made her feel distressed at the moment. Whether it is Chu Zixiao or Su Junli, she has failed to live up to their deep love Strange, can only blame the deep love and shallow edge. Her soul gave Gu Beichen at a specific time. There was still no Encore concert, and the applause in the concert hall was like thunder, and the enthusiasm remained for a long time. Jane Mo stood up. At the same time, the man in white stood up They walked out one after another. Jane Mo fell into the faint sadness of the last piano song. She was a little dignified and didn''t notice that the man in white came out with her Lifting the heavy curtain of the door, Jane Mo''s mood was a little depressed, and she planned to breathe and go backstage again. Only then did she find that the man in white followed her out. Jane Mo smiled politely at the man, with doubts in her heart "Come out and breathe," said the nice voice of the man in white. "Adrian''s music was so shocking... In it, everyone''s enthusiasm made me unable to precipitate." Jane Mo didn''t expect that he would see through her mind. She smiled shyly, "me too..." "Why is he here?" At the other exit of the concert hall, Shi Shaoqin looked at the man in white standing next to Jian mo. Because of the angle, he can see them, but they can''t see him. Morson also had a startled doubt in the bottom of his eyes. Shi Shaoqin suddenly narrowed his Feng eyes, but in an instant, his breath suddenly dispersed He glanced slightly at Jian Mo, his indifferent eyes slipped over the man in white, and then turned away. At the right time, the man in White said to Jian Mo, "Hello, my name is Shi Jueyi..." Chapter 367 After introducing himself, Shi Jueyi looked at Jian Mo''s smile, which was a little abrupt. However, it seemed natural for him to do it "Hello, Jane!" Jane Mo opened with a smile. She didn''t feel a trace of malice for the man. "I''m glad to listen to a concert with you that makes people''s souls washed..." Shi Juyi said with a clear smile, "goodbye." Then he nodded to Jane Mo with a smile, and then turned and left. Everything seems to be an episode in Jian Mo''s life that will not be remembered. She does take this man called Shi Juyi as an episode It''s just, sometimes... Episodes don''t happen by accident. Looking at Shi Jueyi''s back leaving with warmth, Jian Mo shrugged and turned to walk in the direction of the backstage. As soon as Shi Jueyi left the concert hall, his mobile phone rang He stopped and took it out. After looking at the call, he calmly picked it up. "Why are you in Los Angeles?" Shi Shaoqin''s indifferent voice came with a feeling of forbearance. Shi Jue smiled at the corners of his mouth and said, "if you don''t come and listen to a concert, you''ll know..." Shi Shaoqin Feng''s eyes were slightly cold and didn''t speak. "I''ll go back in the evening..." Shi Jueyi sighed softly. "Will you have dinner with me later?" "No!" Shi Shaoqin seemed very angry. After shaking two words coldly, he hung up the phone. With a sigh, Shi Juyi closed the line, took his pockets with both hands and walked quietly down the steps... From beginning to end, it seemed that he didn''t see a car parked behind the roadside, but just stood waiting by the roadside. Maybe it''s because of the location of the concert hall. There are few taxis here... There''s someone passing by occasionally. Morson felt the dignified atmosphere in the car, swallowed it secretly, looked at the stone Jue waiting by the roadside and opened his mouth with a hard scalp: "Qin Shao..." Shi Shaoqin said with a cold face, "past." "Yes!" As soon as Morson heard this, he hurried to drive over. Shi Jueyi looked down at the window. He didn''t need to see his face. Just the cold smell, he already knew who it was. When he opened the door and got on the bus, he looked at Shi Shaoqin''s cold face and asked with a smile, "Why are you here?" "Passing by!" Shi Shaoqin said coldly. Shi decided to deepen his smile and opened his mouth lightly: "if you say you came to pick me up for dinner, it''s more convincing." Shi Shaoqin frowned, glanced at Shi Jue Yi and said coldly, "why didn''t you tell me when you came to Los Angeles?" "Just go back after watching a concert and think you won''t find..." Shi Jueyi didn''t care about Shi Shaoqin''s cold face except for his soft smile. "Obviously, you still know." "Just to see the concert?" Shi Shaoqin Feng''s eyes narrowed slightly, and his eyes were sharp. "Otherwise?" Shi decided to ask. Shi Shaoqin frowned invisibly, took back his sight and said coldly, "it''s best." Shi Jueyi smiled and picked the tail of his eyebrow, with a calm face. Morson looked at the eye stone from the rearview mirror... It would be a coincidence if he just came to see the concert. The most important thing is that when Qin Shao wants to add the dose, he will never be around Jian mo "Drive!" Shi Shaoqin''s indifferent words interrupted Mosen''s thoughts. "Yes!" Morson answered the sound and started the car. When people came out of the concert hall one after another, he drove away. Shi Jueyi glanced at the concert hall, and there was a touch of emotion across his eyes When can Shaoqin''s heart knot be put down? Jane Mo is just innocent With a deep sigh, he narrowed his sight. ¡­¡­ "Mo Mo, let''s go to the celebration banquet in the evening..." Li Jinxi walked up to Jian Mo and said discontentedly, "then, by the way, explain the front and back between you and Gu Beichen..." Jian Mo looked bitterly at Su Junli for help, but it was obvious that Li Jinxi didn''t give her this opportunity. "If you don''t want to ''offend'' me in the future..." Li Jinxi proudly picked his chin and ''hummed'', "I advise you not to think about running away today." Jane Mo smiled helplessly, "you said so, can I refuse?" "No!" Li Jinxi immediately laughed excitedly, and then shouted everyone together. "How did you get here?" Su Junli glanced at Li Jinxi and shook his head with a headache. "Drive..." Jane Mo replied, "ah Chen didn''t come." Su Junli smiled shallowly. If he came... He wouldn''t play the last song. Anyway, he doesn''t want to cause misunderstanding between Momo and Gu Beichen because of himself... Of course, maybe he thinks too much. "The car turns back and asks people to drive back. I''ll see you off when it''s over?" Su Junli asked. Jane thought and nodded. She felt that Su Junli wanted to say something... However, she had to put it off by Li Jinxi. Los Angeles International Airport. At night, the sound of the plane landing came The roller rubs the ground and sends out sparks of stars, which is particularly bright at night. Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing got off the plane and went directly to the parking lot through the VIP channel. After getting on the bus, Gu Beichen looked at the lights of Los Angeles in the distance, and his eagle eyes were deep Drooping his eyes, he took out his mobile phone and dialed Li Jinxi. "Where is it?" Gu Beichen asked indifferently. "Junli''s concert has just ended and is going to heaven night..." Li Jinxi replied, "tut Tut, it''s a pity you didn''t hear it." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and felt that Li Jinxi was going to make fun of his prelude. "You don''t know. The last song is just..." Li Jinxi didn''t continue to say, but said with a smile, "when will you come back, Chen Xuan asked you to eat." Chen Xuan, who was driving, immediately frowned. He glanced at Li Jinxi: when will he invite Gu Beichen to dinner? The man is counting on pulling him into the water every minute. He doesn''t want to eat with him, okay? Unfortunately, Li Jinxi ignored him at all. "When it''s time to come back, come back naturally." Gu Beichen said coldly and hung up the phone, "turn on the radio." Xiao Jing answered and turned on the radio The radio station was broadcasting about Su Junli''s concert. Soon, it mentioned the last song. "The end song Adrian is different from the usual style and uses a tender song style..." the host said, "with his thoughts and blessings for the girl in his dream, it makes people who have heard it seem to return to the feeling of first love at that moment..." The background music has gradually sounded. With Su Jun''s soft and distant voice, the song wind gives his soul under his fingers. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly and his thin lips opened: "go to heaven night!" Chapter 368 As a metropolis, the most important thing in the night here is to get drunk and dream of death. As a paradise night that has always stood in Los Angeles, no matter in terms of consumption or status, other entertainment places can not match, the night is particularly lively. Su Junli doesn''t like such an occasion very much. However, regardless of the cooperative relationship, he and Li Jinxi are also people in the same circle, and they have a lot of contacts on weekdays. Jian Mo was "tortured and confessed" by Li Jinxi and poured several glasses of wine. Then under her power, she explained all kinds of things with Gu Beichen. Of course, she ignored the contract, but bluntly said that when the first two got married, they didn''t have much feelings... And then gradually fell in love with each other over time. Li Jinxi is now also a big woman immersed in the love world. Talking about her feelings with Jian Mo, she suddenly resonated. "Yes, you''re right..." Li Jinxi picked up the cup and dried it and put it down. "Chen Xuan and I are." Chen Xuan looked at Li Jinxi with a headache and thought that she would get drunk later and have to "feel uneasy at home" again tonight. "Mo Mo..." Li Jinxi handed Jian Mo a glass of wine. "I apologize to you!" Jane Mo frowned suspiciously, "why?" Li Jinxi sighed deeply, "I didn''t know at the beginning. I still played a joke on Xiaochu and Beichen in front of you... I apologize to you!" "You don''t know..." "I have to apologize." Li Jinxi has always been a bold man, "Xiao Chu is my friend, and so are you... Dig a corner of a friend to another friend. Whether it''s intentional or unintentional, it''s my fault." Then she took the wine bottle, poured two cups and handed Jane a cup, "forgive me, just do it!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and her stomach twitched for a while when she looked at the glass of wine. How does she feel that Jinxi''s purpose today is to intoxicate her? "I can''t drink a glass of wine for Jane..." "Oh, no..." Before Li Jinxi could say anything, Su Junli had already raised his head and drank the glass of wine. Everyone looked at him with rich expressions on their faces. Su Junli has always been self disciplined. Drinking is just a taste, not a disappointment. He will never drink like this. Today is Most of the eyes had fallen on Jian Mo, whose face was flushed with crimson by Li Jinxi, and looked at each other one by one. "You''ve had enough. Do you really want to get the foam drunk?" Su Jun looked at Li Jinxi slightly from his sight, and then grabbed Jian Mo''s wrist, "I have something to tell you." Li Jinxi looked at Jian Mo and fanned his eyes, "go, go, or I can''t stand some people getting angry." Su Jun Li glanced at Li Jinxi lightly, with a warning in his eyes... And then looked softly at Jian mo. Jane Mo got up and left with Su Jun, but when she came to the door, she looked back at Li Jinxi, who was smiling with her, and always felt that the smile on her face was cunning. The quiet staircase is less noisy in the box. Jane Mo Xu is a little drunk because she just got up too hard, and her head is a little dizzy. Su Junli looked at her. Her eyes were blurred because of the increasingly red wine. With a slight sigh, she sat down on the stairs Silence. The long silence gradually made the surrounding air dignified. Jian Mo leaned against the wall, slapped his eyelashes with a wooden fan, and asked, "Jun Li, what do you have... Is it difficult to speak?" After four years together, even if Jane Mo has no heart, it doesn''t mean she doesn''t know anything about Su Junli. Su Jun looked sideways at Jian Mo, looked for a long time, then took back his sight and fell in front, "Mo Mo, I''m going to be engaged..." Jane Mo subconsciously frowned and sat up, "what?" "I''m going to be engaged..." Su Junli looked at Jian Mo again, and his soft vision became deep. Jane Morse suddenly woke up. She wanted to say "Congratulations", but she thought it was too cruel at the moment. He touched the corners of his lips. In the end, Jane Mo didn''t say anything. She is not a fool Su Jun''s engagement was so sudden that he certainly didn''t want it in his heart. But what can she say? She can''t give him anything, nor can she give him hope "Jun Li..." Jane Mo lowered her eyes, "I''m sorry!" "Alas..." Su Junli sighed lightly, "Mo Mo, I''m not telling you this thing to make you feel guilty." He looked away. "I just thought I should get a blessing from you." "Will you be happy?" Jane Mo raised her eyes and asked, "if you will be happy, I will say this blessing..." there was a hazy voice in her eyes that didn''t know whether it was drunk or sad, and her voice was even more dignified. "But I said, you will only be more sad." Su Jun was silent. After a while, a self mockery slipped across the corner of his mouth, "even if you drink wine, your brain is still awake..." "Jun Li," said Jane mo after she endured, "if you can''t be nice to her, don''t hurt her at the beginning. It''s too cruel to you and her..." Su Junli gradually smiled with a touch of melancholy in his eyes, but that smile was a little bitter Silence again. Jane Mo didn''t speak. She didn''t know what to say now It seemed that no matter what he said, it was hurtful to Su Junli. Su Junli didn''t speak... He just wanted to sit quietly with her for a while, even for a while! Footsteps came, a little hurried. In the sight of Su Junli and Jian Mo, they subconsciously landed at the stair door, and someone had pushed the door open vigorously Gu Beichen stood there in a black suit with a haze on his cold face. "Ah Chen?" Jane Mo fanned her eyes and felt an illusion. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Looking at the two people sitting on the stairs, he knew that he had been fooled by Li Jinxi In fact, Li Jinxi''s means are very simple, but because he is worried about Jian Mo, consciousness still controls reason. "Chen Shao looks at his wife really tightly..." Su Junli said. The man has stood up and walked over, his voice is light and slow, and said in a voice that only two people can hear. "Chen Shao had better look at his wife closely. Don''t let her get lost one day." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly cold, and said without expression on his face: "three less worry..." Su Jun left Gou''s lips and smiled. He looked back at Jian Mo, who was still surprised. Then he took back his sight and went out over Gu Beichen Seeing Gu Beichen so nervous about her, he seemed to have no extravagant hopes and worries. Mo Mo, just be happy with Gu Beichen "When did you come back?" Jane Mo frowned back. "I didn''t listen to you during the day!" "When I sent you a text message, I was at Donghai Airport..." Gu Beichen came over and looked down at Jian Mo and looked at the ruddy on her face. He couldn''t help but sink his voice: "am I a traitor?" Chapter 369 Jane Mo stood up, but because she was too close to Gu Beichen, she stumbled under her feet, tripped on the stairs and fell back "Ah..." Jane Mo just screamed, and her waist was held by her powerful arms. Slightly fanned his eyelashes. The dim light in the corridor hit Gu Beichen''s side face, plating a thin halo, especially soft. Jian Mo''s heart beat uncontrollably and his chest was in a position because Gu Beichen hugged her and tightly adhered to his solid chest. Even, she can clearly feel his strong heartbeat. Kiss... So without warning, but it falls naturally. A few days later, Gu Beichen missed the little woman in his arms. But for a moment, Gu Beichen''s sentimental kiss seemed to swallow Jian Mo into his stomach. Jian Mo''s body is half upside down. It can''t completely fall down only by the strength on Gu Beichen''s arm She hooked his neck and enthusiastically responded to his kiss until their lips and tongues became numb and their breathing became heavy... They were unwilling to let go. "Mo''er..." Gu beichenjun buried his face in Jian Mo''s neck and gently absorbed the fragrance from her. Jane Mo''s waist was a little uncomfortable. She grabbed Gu Beichen''s sleeve and said angrily: "my waist is about to break..." As she spoke, her face reddened even more. He had already reacted. The heat hit her and scalded her skin. Gu Beichen dragged Jian Mo up, pushed her against the wall, listened to her breathing, and said in a dark voice, "I''ll punish you when I go home..." He kissed the skin in her ear for a while, then pressed down the flame of his body and got up. Mo Tong gave Jane Mo a deep and hard look, took her hand and went out Back to the villa, the two newly married people seemed to have no time to go upstairs and rolled directly on the spacious sofa in the living room The moonlight shines gently through the clean glass window. Under the soft moonlight, the rolling two people rise and fall, crazy have each other and tell their thoughts for several days. The villa is full of ambiguities under high enthusiasm. Outside the villa, Chu Zixiao leaned against the door and looked at the villa with his hands, gradually darkening his sight I don''t know how long I stood. Chu Zixiao took back his sight and got up. When I got on the car, I looked in the direction of the villa and started the car to leave. Driving all the way down the mountain, Chu Zixiao''s face gradually showed a blurred darkness. The car phone rings at the right time. He looked coldly and pressed the answer button. "Where are the people?" Tang Yu''s voice came from inside. "Tired, let''s go first..." Chu Zixiao said indifferently. Tang Yu frowned, "there are people here, you..." "You stay with me. I''ll go back first." Chu Zixiao said and hung up. As soon as they got to heaven night, they saw Beichen pulling Mo Mo away... He followed them. Standing outside the villa alone, he looked at the villa shrouded in night. Clearly know what will happen at night, but he looked at himself cruelly The foot pressing the accelerator kept stepping down. Chu Zixiao knew clearly that he was constantly forcing himself. "Squeak -" The harsh sound of brakes echoed on the fork of the road from the mid level villa to the urban area. Chu Zixiao looked at the front with cold eyes, and his eyes were gradually cold. Take out your cell phone, dial the number and go out Jian Heng and Gu mohuai are drinking in the bar. When they see Chu Zixiao''s phone, a dangerous smile is on one side of his mouth. Pick it up and put it in your ear. "I agree..." Chu Zixiao''s voice came through with forbearance. Jane truss looked deeply, and the smile on the corner of her mouth deepened and said, "have you considered it?" "Jian Heng," Chu Zixiao gnashed his teeth, "I''m not helping you, I just want Mo Mo to come back to me!" "Don''t worry... I just want Xiaomo to leave Gu Beichen." Chu Zixiao''s eyes narrowed slightly, coldly put down his mobile phone and broke the line. The night shrouded the lonely car parked at the fork of the road. Some of Chu Zixiao seemed to have been evacuated and lay back on the seat. Looking at the distance under the reflection of the lights in front, he gradually became lax. The villa is still madly doing the most primitive. Only such mutual ownership seems to be the most real at this moment. "Mo''er, say you love me..." Gu Beichen nibbled at Jian Mo and gently coaxed him. "Well..." Jane Mo said oblivious, "I know you love me..." Gu Beichen heard "I told you to say ''I love you''..." he frowned and continued to coax. Jian Mo snorted again. Dissatisfied with Gu Beichen''s torture, he bit hard on his shoulder, "I''m listening to your expression!" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deep, and there was a dangerous breath on his face. "Well, I love you..." he said, and his lips fell on Jian Mo''s eyebrows. "What about you?" Jian Mo''s "treachery" succeeded. When she climbed to the height of happiness driven by Gu Beichen, she said emotionally: "ah Chen, I love you too..." The moonlight is as soft as water. Shi Shaoqin sent Shi Jueyi to the airport, where a private luxury passenger plane has been prepared. "Remember to tell me where to go in the future..." Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful face showed a trace of unhappiness. Shi Jueyi sighed quietly, and answered softly without resistance, "OK." Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak any more, but gave a slight sign. "Shaoqin..." Shi Jueyi thought for a moment, but still opened his mouth, "when are you going to go back?" "When it''s time to go back." Shi Shaoqin said to Ling Liangke. Shi Jueyi''s warm face showed a touch of helplessness. Finally, without saying anything, he turned and boarded the plane. However, at the moment when the hatch was closed, he looked back at Shi Shaoqin... Finally, the two men''s eyes in the air were forcibly blocked by the hatch. "Qin Shao..." Morson stepped forward at the moment when the plane was about to take off. Shi Shaoqin looked at the sliding passenger plane. His narrow Phoenix eyes narrowed slightly and said coldly: "those who followed Jue Yi threw them into the tiger cage... No one can see. What do I want them to do?" With a cold light sigh, he turned back and walked outside the airport. Morson looked at the plane that had climbed with a dignified face, and then followed Shi Shaoqin out. "If you know less, I''m afraid..." Mosen said with some worry. Shi Shaoqin stopped, and Feng''s eyes looked at morsen Morson''s heart sank immediately, swallowed it secretly, and said with numbness on his scalp, "I see." Shi Shaoqin coldly lifted his steps again and walked out Morson looked at the cold and arrogant figure with a heavy heart. The people around jueshao suddenly disappeared... How can you not know that they were dealt with by qinshao? Chapter 370 the second day. Before going abroad, when they called each other, they knew that Jane Mo didn''t need to go to the company recently. Gu Beichen saw that she was sleepy, relaxed her movements and went to the next room to wash. Gu Beichen went to the company early. After Gu muhuai came back, except for the shareholders'' meeting, he didn''t make any big moves. Even the previous small moves stopped If it''s not to cover up, it''s ready to go... Gu Beichen knows this very well. With a "drop", the internal telephone rang when Gu Beichen had just finished the video conference. He pressed the answer button. "Chen Shao," came Susan''s voice. "President Chen of Huaye is on the phone." "Come in." "OK." Susan answered and answered the phone. "What?" Gu Beichen spoke coldly. Chen Xuanyi had a headache when he heard Gu Beichen''s indifferent tone. He doubted whether this man would not have any emotional fluctuations except for Jian mo. "Do you know that Jane Mo is participating in the architectural design of China entertainment film city?" Chen Xuan opened his mouth lazily, and his voice was full of ruffian Qi. "I don''t know." Gu Beichen said indifferently, as if he should not know. Chen Xuan frowned, "tut Tut, Beichen... Are you incompetent as a husband or a wife who doesn''t trust you?" "She has always been independent, and I also want to give her her own private space." Gu Beichen lay back in his chair, "unlike some people, he likes to be led by a rope..." "Poof..." Chen Xuan was drinking water. Hearing Gu Beichen''s indifference, he compared him to a "dog", and a mouthful of water gushed out. "Fuck..." Chen Xuan said dirty words directly. Gu Beichen had no expression on Leng junrudiao''s face, but said calmly, "you won''t come to tell me this?" "Of course not..." Chen Xuan immediately smiled. "I want to say that Shen Chu also participated." Gu Beichen frowned faintly. "JK is controlled by your emperor after all, and she is making money for you when she gets the project..." Chen Xuan said with a bad smile, "I just want to ask, do you want me to release water?" "No need..." "Huh?" Chen Xuan was stunned. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is deep, "Jian Mo doesn''t need you to discharge water." Chen Xuan''s eyes were deep. Gu Beichen''s words were airtight, so he didn''t have to play at all. "Have you heard from Mo palace recently?" Gu Beichen turned to business. "No..." Chen Xuan shrugged. "The news on the road has been boiling, but the Mo palace didn''t reply and let them spread..." he paused, "tut Tut, I''m afraid... Something really happened in the Mo Palace this time." Gu Beichen knew it well, "maybe it''s just hiding people''s ears and eyes..." Chen Xuan shrugged again and did not rule out this possibility. "How''s the other thing going?" Gu Beichen asked again. Chen Xuan was silent for a while and said in a dignified voice: "grandpa has analyzed all the information related to silence, but grandpa said... Silence may not be as simple as poison." Gu Beichen listened, his sight narrowed slightly, and the ink pupil was deep in an instant Jane Mo turned over on the bed. She wanted to open her eyes, but her eyelids seemed to weigh a thousand kilograms. She couldn''t open them. "Well..." Jane Mo snorted and turned over again. So sleepy Jane Mo frowned and her mind was awake, but her body seemed sleepy and couldn''t control it After struggling for a long time, Jane Mo opened her eyes with several efforts. With blurred eyes, the scene in front of her gradually became clear. Jane Mo frowned and looked at the time with her mobile phone. It was almost ten o''clock. She really doesn''t have to go to the company to stay in bed at will Without much thought, Jane Mo went to the bathroom to wash. Aunt Luo saw her go downstairs and asked the servant to heat up the breakfast. After eating, aunt Luo cleaned up the table so that Jane Mo could draw pictures Now everyone in the villa knows that Jane has a habit. She likes to work at the table and doesn''t like to go to the study... That''s how she has inspiration. Near noon, Jian Mo sent a text message to Gu Beichen to remind him to eat. Before he could reply, the phone rang. Seeing Chu Zixiao, Jian Mo''s eyebrows tightened in an instant. Now every time she sees his phone, she feels so stressed. Whether to answer or not seems to be a problem. What''s more... It''s hard not to meet each other in today''s relationship. Jane Mo sighed. Just when the bell was about to disappear, she picked it up "I just went to your company and didn''t see you?" Chu Zixiao''s deep voice came slowly. "I''ve been working on the design drawings these days, but there''s no past..." Jane Mo didn''t lie. After silence, Chu Zixiao said, "let''s have dinner together?" Jane Mo wanted to refuse, but before she could say anything, Chu Zixiao said, "or I''ll go to the middle of the mountain to find you?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth. Chu Zixiao, as Gu Beichen''s nephew, has no right to stop him from coming here. However, Jane Mo doesn''t know what will happen The heart became more and more heavy, and Jane morhu lowered the corner of her mouth and tried to slow down her tone and said, "Zixiao, I thought I was clear enough..." "Why, is there a problem with my nephew eating with my little aunt?" Chu Zixiao''s light voice came, mocking and even biting the word "little aunt". Jane Mo frowned more tightly. Such a title made her uncomfortable... Although it is such a relationship now. "I''ll wait for you in Nanxiang building..." Chu Zixiao said quietly, "this one near the school." Without giving Jane Mo a chance to refuse, he added: "if you want our relationship to become more and more rigid, you can not come." Jian Mo felt that she was a little passive in the matter of Chu Zixiao. She doesn''t want to harden his relationship with ah Chen because of herself However, she is now powerless to let Zixiao understand that they are completely past tense. After cleaning up the design drawings, Jane Mo said to Aunt Luo and drove to the Nanxiang building near Luoda. When the car slid through the street on the side of Luoda, Jane Mo''s mood was a little complicated Car, stop at the gate of Nanxiang building. This Nanxiang building has been open here for a long time. The University of Los Angeles is a famous school and there are many rich people... Even though the dishes are much more expensive than nearby restaurants, the business here has always been good because of the delicious food and the reputation in Los Angeles. Out of the car, a warm wind hit. Jane Mo subconsciously stroked her left arm In fact, it''s no longer itchy these days, but she always subconsciously scratched it. Chu Zixiao stood at the window of the box on the second floor, and his sight fell slightly on Jian Mo, and gradually... His eyes became deep. Jane Mo walked in, asked the waiter where Chu Zixiao was, and then went upstairs. Just as she stepped up the stairs, a man and a woman came in. After their eyes slipped over Jane Mo''s back, they sat down in a prominent position in the hall Chapter 371 Emperor group. Gu Beichen just finished the meeting and walked to the office with one hand and a pocket Susan saw him come back, took a folder and followed up the office, "Chen Shao, the old lady''s birthday invitation list has been drawn up..." With that, she put the list on her desk. Gu Beichen picked it up and looked around. Grandma didn''t like the excitement, but this time she didn''t know why. She said she wanted to do a big deal The old man is sometimes a little childish, and Gu Beichen doesn''t care much. "That''s it." Gu Beichen said after reading it. Susan took the list. "Let me send the invitation." Gu Beichen nodded and didn''t say anything. Xiao Jing''s phone rang He listened to the people inside, and his face became more and more dignified. Gu Beichen and Susan looked at him suspiciously. Xiao Jing hung up the phone, looked at Gu Beichen and said, "the emperor has acquired another 2% of the retail shares... At least twice the market price." Susan''s pupils dilated in an instant. She couldn''t believe it. However, Xiao Jing''s face was dignified and serious, which could not be questioned by her. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, "second uncle doesn''t have this ability..." It''s not his style to hurt others by this. In addition, if this continues, first of all, he will be locked up and can''t operate. "Chen Shao, do you need it?" Xiao Jing thought for a moment and asked. Gu Beichen was silent. His drooping eyes were covered by thick eyelashes. After a while, he slowly said, "close!" "OK..." Xiao Jing answered and arranged immediately. Susan went out with Xiao Jing. Her face was a little dignified and asked, "is it really good to let Yadong bank participate?" Xiao Jing looked at Susan and knew that she was worried, but some things were not suitable for her. She knew, "since Chen Shao has decided, he naturally has his reason." "Alas..." Susan sighed. "It''s not a good thing to have a big family and a big career." Then she went back to the Secretary''s room with the list. Xiao Jing twitched at the corner of his mouth and then called the Dragon Owl Not many people know that the real person behind Yadong bank is long Xiao... This is probably the only legitimate industry of Long Xiao. It goes without saying what to do... After all, only the place with the largest working capital is the safest place to run money. ¡­¡­ As soon as Jane Mo arrived on the second floor, a text message arrived on her mobile phone. She stopped and took out her mobile phone, which Gu Beichen replied. President Gu: I ate it in the staff canteen. You are working after a rest. You haven''t been in good spirits lately. Jane Mo''s heart is warm: Well, OK. She didn''t tell Gu Beichen about seeing Chu Zixiao. Because of her, the relationship between her nephew and uncle is a little stiff now. She doesn''t want to make such a relationship more stiff. Took the cell phone, pushed the door and went in Chu Zixiao turned slowly, and they looked up in the air. Jane Mo looked calm, and now she can only be calm. Chu Zixiao and Jian Mo sat face to face. Because this Nanxiang building is opened near the school, there are many small lovers'' boxes here... The place is not particularly spacious, but it is warm enough. Of course, this word is not suitable for Chu Zixiao and Jian Mo at the moment. Silence. First there was a long silence Once lovers are now speechless. Jian Mo feels that the trajectory of fate sometimes likes to joke with people. After they sat down for a while, there was a knock on the door, and then the dishes came up again and again. "Your dishes are all ready, please take your time..." the waiter put down the last soup and turned and went out. Just, she frowned slightly at the moment of closing the door... She had never seen two people. She didn''t say a word from her serving to the end, and even her posture didn''t change. "Eat first..." Chu Zixiao added a crystal dumpling to Jian mo. Jane Mo looked at the dishes on the table and felt even heavier. I don''t know whether it''s a good memory or some things are too unforgettable at that time... Jian Mo clearly remembers that these dishes were ordered by Chu Zixiao when they came here for dinner before he went abroad. It''s basically what she likes to eat... She ordered two for him, which is what he likes to eat. Jane Mo''s heart was a little sour, as if she had been squeezed tightly. "Zixiao..." Jane Mo shouted and raised her eyes. "Eat first!" Chu Zixiao interrupted Jian Mo''s words. Jane Mo bolted her words in her mouth and looked at Chu Zixiao. Finally, she didn''t say anything and continued to eat. The dignified atmosphere was oppressed because neither of them spoke. After eating a few mouthfuls, Jian Mo put down his chopsticks completely without appetite. "Zixiao, what''s there? Let''s talk about it today... It''s not good for anyone to go on like this." Chu Zixiao slightly put on a faint smile at the corners of his mouth. That smile showed an emotion that people couldn''t understand. Just, Jane Mo had only one idea at that moment Chu Zixiao has changed! In the past, he showed a trace of evil charm under laziness in his self-confidence and was modest and polite to others And just at that moment, she only felt the darkness. "Beichen won the last emperor shareholders'' meeting for the time being..." Chu Zixiao said slowly. Jane Mo didn''t speak, just waiting. "Second aunt didn''t vote, I didn''t vote!" Chu Zixiao spoke again. Jane Mo frowned slightly. "Considering the interests... The second aunt will not necessarily stand on the side of Beichen." "And then?" Jian Mo raised her eyebrows as if she could predict what Chu Zixiao was going to say. "Mo Mo, come back to me and I''ll give my 5% stake to Beichen..." Chu Zixiao said calmly. Jane Mo smiled with some sarcasm. "Don''t you think it''s an insult to him if you exchange me for shares?" Jane Mo''s voice cooled down, "Zixiao, he is your little uncle. You should know his character best." "It''s because I know... He can''t lose!" Chu Zixiao''s voice was very gentle, "Mo Mo, I''m afraid you don''t know?" Jane froze her eyes. "Beichen has been kidnapped..." Chu Zixiao said slowly. "When he came back, he began to try his best to bring the emperor into his hands. This is all his faith." After a pause, his voice became more and more slow. "So, once you lose the Emperor... What do you think he will do?" Jian Mo knew about the kidnapping from Luo Xiaomi and knew one thing, which hurt Gu Beichen a lot. Zixiao said this, meaning is very obvious, if you lose the emperor, ah Chen may fall "Zixiao, because of me, do you decide to stand against ah Chen?" Jian Mo understood Chu Zixiao''s purpose today. "Yes!" Chu Zixiao is not taboo. Jane Mo sneered and said coldly, "if this is your choice, Zixiao, from now on, you and me..." she gritted her teeth and stood up, "it doesn''t matter anymore." Then she turned and wanted to leave. But at the moment of opening the door, he was caught by Chu Zixiao. Chapter 372 Jane Mo turned angrily and shook her hand. She shouted loudly, "let go!" "Mo Mo, do you have to stay with Beichen..." Chu Zixiao''s eyes roared angrily. "Yes!" Jane roared, "under no circumstances will I leave her..." Her mood became excited for a moment, and her eyes were filled with a fierce roar that had never been seen before: "even if the whole world betrayed him, I would only stand by his side and betray the whole world..." Chu Zixiao listened and gradually used his strength to grasp Jian Mo''s wrist. Jane Mo was pinched in pain, but she didn''t say a word, but her eyes stared at Chu Zixiao. Suddenly Chu Zixiao pushed Jian Mo against the door. Just before she reacted, her face was pressed down... Forced to kiss. "Well..." Jane Mo''s back brain was hit on the door, and the whole head suddenly heard a ''buzzing'' sound. It hasn''t slowed down yet. The lips have been sealed by Chu Zixiao. "Oh... Let... You... Oh..." Jian Mo subconsciously clenched her teeth and pushed him with her hands that were not clamped by Chu Zixiao. However, she couldn''t get up at all because of her strength and passivity. "Put... HMM..." Jane Mo shook her head as hard as she was crazy, but she still couldn''t hide from Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao was crazy, and his eyes were full of a heavy and violent breath. At the moment he touched Jian Mo''s lips, he seemed to be trapped by a nightmare and completely lost his calmness. Jane Mo ignored the pain of being rubbed against her skin because of her struggle, and because she couldn''t push Chu Zixiao away, a layer of water mist gradually filled her eyes "Well..." Suddenly, Chu Zixiao heard a light hum. Then, blood gas came from each other''s mouths, full of disgusting breath. Taking advantage of the gap, Jian Mo pushed Chu Zixiao away a little, and then came with a "pop". "Chu Zixiao, you''re crazy!" Jane Mo roared. In an instant, her nose was sour and her tears fell. Chu Zixiao''s hand holding Jian Mo hasn''t been loosened, but it''s more tightly held uncontrollably. Jane Mo bit her teeth to keep her pain from breathing out. The palm of Chu Zixiao''s hand slapped came a burning tingling feeling. Under the interaction of strength, we can imagine how much strength she had just used. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were deep and fierce. "Yes, I''m crazy... So, foam..." he gritted his teeth and roared, "without you, I''ll only be more crazy!" Jane Mo''s heart froze. Seeing Chu Zixiao like this, she was uncontrollably afraid. "What do you want?" Jane Mo forgot to cry and looked at Chu Zixiao in horror in her eyes. Chu Zixiao narrowed his eyes slightly, but squeezed out his teeth word by word coldly: "do you believe it or not, if you are around Beichen one day, I will oppose him one day?" Jian Mo''s body trembled uncontrollably. It seemed that she had never known Chu Zixiao, "he is the little uncle you admire most..." "But he is also the man who robbed my love!" Chu Zixiao immediately refuted. Jane Mo shook her head in horror. She couldn''t understand Chu Zixiao''s situation at the moment, "why did you become like this..." "Because of you!" "No..." Jian Mo retorted, "you are because you are unwilling. Chu Zixiao, you don''t love me, you just can''t accept me. Turn around first!" "Whatever you say!" Chu Zixiao viciously licked the corner of his lower mouth with the tip of his tongue, which broke the skin and spilled blood because of Jane Mo''s slap. That rusty taste made his crazy nerves burn more vigorously. Jian Mo looked at Chu Zixiao in horror. She was a little afraid. Even the tip of her heart was shaking. She began to try to break free from Chu Zixiao''s imprisonment, and even buckle it with her other hand... Regardless of the stabbing pain from her wrist, she just kept trying to break him. However, no matter how hard Jane Mo tried, she couldn''t break free. "You let go..." Jane Mo murmured, "you let go, let go..." her breathing became faster and faster, "you let go!" Finally, she roared at Chu Zixiao Chu Zixiao didn''t let go, but a pair of scarlet eyes stared at Jian mo. The more she resisted him, the more she stimulated his nerves He thought she could hesitate a little by means of coercion. However, no In her eyes, there was only fear of him and firmness to Gu Beichen. "Mo Mo, I''ll make you regret..." Chu Zixiao opened his mouth with a deep voice, which was not like the world, but like the overflow from hell. "I''ll let you come back and beg me!" Chu Zixiao gritted his teeth and released Jian Mo''s wrist one by one. Jane Mo''s breathing was disorderly and dignified. Her eyes were red and she just said, "no..." her eyes were full of disappointment. "I will only accompany ah Chen more firmly." After taking a deep breath, Jian Mo said with red eyes: "Zixiao, you let me down... Even, you made me regret having liked you!" After gritting her teeth, Jane Mo didn''t stop. She leaned over and picked up her bag, opened the door of the box and left with a big step "Ah!" Jane Mo went down the stairs. Because she was in a hurry, she suddenly sprained her foot. With a cry of surprise, she subconsciously grabbed the handrail on one side of the stairs. The ankle is tingling. At this moment, Jian Mo has a severe heart pain She doesn''t know why it''s like this? Mingming knows what she wants. Mingming has never given Chu Zixiao any hope since she was with Gu Beichen Why, why did he become like this? She just wants to be with Gu Beichen, and she just wants someone to love her after losing her family... Is she asking too much? Jane Mo bit her lips, endured the pain and wanted to leave Unfortunately I just twisted my foot. It''ll be unbearable. With the sound of "Oh", Jian Mo''s pain exhaled. At the same time, his foot slipped and the whole person wanted to fall "Be careful!" The scream came. Just when Jian Mo was about to fall, the people who came up from the downstairs took an arrow to the front and forcibly held Jian Mo with themselves. Jane Mo was helped up and looked at the woman holding her with gratitude in her eyes. "Thank you... Are you okay?" The woman shook her head with a smile, as if she didn''t see Jane Mo''s unbearable sadness, but said, "I''m fine..." paused. She looked at Jane Mo''s unstoppable foot, "let me help you downstairs to have a rest first?" Jane murmured her lower lip and nodded, "thank you." The woman said it didn''t matter. Holding Jane Mo, she went downstairs. At the corner, Jian Mo subconsciously looked back Chu Zixiao didn''t know when she stood at the entrance of the stairs and was looking at her. Two people''s eyes are on each other. One becomes gloomy and strange, and the other becomes disappointed and resistant Chapter 373 After taking a rest downstairs, Jane Mo moved her feet a few times. Seeing that there was no problem, she thanked the woman who had been with her before leaving Nanxiang building. The woman holding Jian Mo and the man who came with him looked at each other, and they followed them out. The two got into the car and watched Jian Mo''s car leave. The woman asked, "do you want to report to Chen Shao?" "Brother Jing said there was no danger and did not interfere with Miss Jane''s normal actions..." the man frowned slightly and hesitated in his tone. "Anyway, we are only responsible for safety." The woman sighed deeply. They didn''t know what happened to Jane Mo upstairs. They just went upstairs to inspect every few minutes. Unexpectedly, when she went up, she just saw that Jane Mo almost fell down. Now I''m afraid. "Why don''t you tell brother Jing..." the woman said, "as for whether he wants to tell Chen Shao, it''s his business." "Good." The man answered. Jane Mo drove the car. Fortunately, she didn''t sprain her foot. It was very serious. After taking a rest, she didn''t have a big problem. However, she went back in this state. When Gu Beichen came back, she could see through something at a glance. After thinking about it, Jane Mo called Gu Beichen and lied that she would go to the company. She would have dinner with Li Xiaoyue in the evening. She might go back later. Gu Beichen didn''t ignore a trace of hoarseness in Jian Mo''s voice, but he didn''t prick it. The phone just hung up and Xiao Jing came in "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing''s face was a little dignified and gave Gu Beichen the words sent by the two bodyguards sent to Jian mo. Gu Beichen''s cold face was still indifferent, but a pair of eagle eyes gradually became deep and bottomless. "Is it Zixiao?" Gu Beichen said softly. "I''ve nodded and had little contact with Chu recently." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, opened in an instant, and a sharp light flashed by. Xiao Jing was a little heavy. "Chen Shao, do you want to talk to him?" Now the emperor looks calm. He thought there was only one Gu mohuai to deal with, but now there is obviously a hidden boss From the last time, that man has little support for Chen. But at the last critical moment, who knows? After all, no one will use twice the market price to force the acquisition of emperor shares... The amount will hurt people. "Talk?" Gu Beichen said softly, and then coldly converged his sight. Four years ago, Zixiao traded those shares for his divorce with Mo''er... Now, the purpose is still the same. In this world, nothing can be priced at the same price as Jane mo Gu Beichen took his mobile phone and gently slid the screen with his fingers. His line of sight fell on Jian Mo''s photo. This was taken by him after she fell asleep last night. On his soft waxy face, there was a flush left after falling in love with him, which made his body react What did she just cheat him with? Gu Beichen sighed softly. When can this little woman stop being so stubborn and tell him everything? ¡­¡­ Jane Mo didn''t go back to the company. She just drove around. She didn''t call Li Xiaoyue until she was about to get off work. The two didn''t go out for dinner either. They went directly to Li Xiaoyue''s house. "Come here, I''ll apply it for you..." Li Xiaoyue twisted a hot towel angrily and put a hot compress on Jian Mo''s red ankle. "What''s the matter with Zixiao?" Li Xiaoyue said incomprehensibly, with anger in her voice. Jane Mo was silent with a heavy heart. Li Xiaoyue glanced at her and said helplessly, "girl, why do you just recruit men like this?" Jane Mo drooped her shoulders, "I''m not in the mood to joke..." Li Xiaoyue glared at her and applied it to her several times before going to the kitchen to cook. After a simple meeting, the two sat on the sofa and talked while eating. "Xiao Yue, I''m worried..." Jian Mo''s heart is getting heavier and heavier, and she has no appetite at all. "I''m afraid the relationship between him and ah Chen will get worse and worse." "Zixiao is supposed to be very rational..." Li Xiaoyue frowned. "Girl, do you think Zixiao is not right recently?" Jian Mo looked at Li Xiaoyue. "I''ve tried to avoid seeing him recently. If I can''t avoid it, it''s as unpleasant as today." "I''ve been in contact with more recently..." Li Xiaoyue looked at the silent TV. "I think he has changed since the last case between him and Mo Shaochen." Jane Mo''s heart began to be nervous. If last time Jane Mo just felt that Chu Zixiao had walked into a dead end because of her feelings for her. Well, today she also feels that he has changed Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo, "girl, you think so, don''t you?" Jane moped her lips and didn''t speak. "Chu Zixiao, who I know, is in high spirits... But now?" Li Xiaoyue frowned, "in order to achieve the goal, some ignore the means." Jane Mo frowned. "What do you mean?" With a deep sigh, Li Xiaoyue roughly explained the recent case against the law of Chu and Tang, "his means are obviously sharp now, leaving no room for people." Jane Mo''s heart is getting heavier and heavier. If Chu Zixiao becomes like this, it''s not what she wants to see. The voice of "Di" came, and Jane Mo was pulled back to her mind by the voice of SMS. She took her cell phone and thought it was Gu Beichen''s, but it was another anonymous message: leave Gu Beichen, for you and him. Jane Mo''s heart seemed to be squeezed, and her hand holding the mobile phone gradually clenched. "Am I with Gu Beichen, and the whole world doesn''t like it?" Jane Mo asked angrily. Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo suspiciously, "girl, what''s the matter?" Jane Mo didn''t speak, just handed her her her cell phone After seeing it, Li Xiaoyue frowned, "who is it? Is it sick?" Said, she suddenly asked, "can''t it be Chu Zixiao?" Jian Mo looked at Li Xiaoyue, "no?" "Didn''t he threaten you at noon?" Li Xiaoyue said angrily, "girl, I think you need to find Gu Beichen to solve this. Their nephew and uncle have a duel. Why should you bear it?" Jane Mo sighed and shook her head, "I don''t want Beichen to know..." Zixiao wants to deal with ah Chen. Will he be very sad? In this family, she has known Gu CI since her two years of marriage... They have only interests in ah Chen. In addition to grandma, Gu Beichen has only Zixiao''s nephew who is with him But now Because of her, Zixiao has to deal with ah Chen. How sad will ah Chen be? Now, it''s not only this matter blocking Jian Mo, but also Gu Beichen''s kidnapping What kind of kidnapping changed his character? Listen to Zixiao''s meaning, after ah Chen was rescued, did he begin to compete for the throne? Thinking, Jane Mo suddenly brightened her eyes Is it the ghost behind Gu mohuai? No, why did ah Chen start to compete for the emperor after he came back from kidnapping? Chapter 374 Originally, Jian Mo was not so curious about Gu Beichen''s kidnapping, but after Chu Zixiao talked to her about the conditions today, she felt... If you want Gu Beichen not to be threatened, you must first know what happened to him that year. It''s impossible to ask Gu Beichen directly Jane Mo frowned and thought that after falling into Gu Beichen''s affair, she didn''t care about the anonymous message. Luo Xiaomi seemed to say that ah Chen''s friend saved him that time? Will Li Yunze know? Thinking, Jian Mo took the phone and called Li Yunze under the curious sight of Li Xiaoyue. "Well... I have something for you." Jane Mo said after the phone was connected, "where are you?" Li Yunze was stunned. He didn''t know what Jian Mo was looking for him. "I''m in the hospital, talking to..." "I went to find you..." Jane Mo heard this, and without waiting for Li Yunze to finish, she couldn''t wait to say. She got up in slippers. Li Yunze didn''t say anything, "OK." He answered. Jane Mo hung up the phone and went to the porch to change her shoes, "I''ll find Li Yunze..." "Do you want me to accompany you?" Li Xiaoyue frowned when she saw that Jane was making a lot of noise. "No." Ah Chen doesn''t want her to know his past. Let Xiao Yue know about it first. "Be careful, don''t hurt your feet. You''ve been tossed again..." Li Xiaoyue frowned when she saw that Jian Mo was worried and twisted her feet into her shoes. Jane Mo was thinking about Gu Beichen at the moment. After answering the voice at will, she left in a hurry. Li Xiaoyue stood at the door and watched Jian Mo enter the elevator. Before turning around and entering the house, another elevator arrived At the moment when Li Xiaoyue closed the door, someone came out of the elevator... Look around. Finally, he stood at Li Xiaoyue''s door and looked at the number. His eyes overflowed with vicious emotion. Jane Mo drove to Huakang hospital. As she approached, her heart tightened together. After parking the car, Jane moo smiled at the corner of her mouth, looked at the sign of the hospital, took a breath secretly, and then got out of the car. Went directly to the floor of Li Yunze''s office. In the elevator, Jane Mo thought about how to extend the topic to that later After all, it doesn''t seem good to ask directly. With a Ding, the elevator arrived. Jane Mo clenched her hand, took a deep breath and went out. Walking to Li Yunze''s office, Jian Mo was still thinking about how to ask. Everyone came to him and hadn''t come up with a reason. "Forget it..." Jane Mo murmured, "no, just say hello!" After taking a deep breath, Jane Mo raised her hand and wanted to knock on the door But before his hand touched the door, he was pulled away from the inside. Jane Mo looked at the man who opened the door with wide eyes, "Why are you here?" Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned, "I''m here." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth, and suddenly seemed to vent her breath. "It''s you," Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo, "what are you looking for Yunze for?" Then he took her in. Li Yunze was lying on the computer. He didn''t know what he was doing. When he saw her coming in, he rolled his eyes. "Finally... If I don''t come again, I''ll starve to death!" "Why?" Jane Mo asked subconsciously. Li Yunze glanced at Gu Beichen. "Originally, we were going to go out for dinner. You said you would come... This one with a wife and no brothers has to wait for you." Jane Mo listened and pulled the corners of her mouth with some guilt. "What are you looking for Yunze for?" Gu Beichen tilted his eyes and asked again after Li Yunze. Jane Mo fanned her eyes, looked at Gu Beichen and said solemnly, "I sprained my foot, so come and have a look!" "Poof..." Gu Beichen hasn''t expressed anything yet. Li Yunze sprayed it now. "I said, you are really a husband and wife..." Li Yunze looked evil. "One took me as a free family doctor, and one sprained his ankle and came to me... Please, how can I be a famous doctor? Are you really good?" Gu Beichen didn''t expose Jian Mo''s lie, and Li Yunze naturally wouldn''t believe that Jian Mo came to him to look at his ankle. However, since Jane Mo lied and explained that she wanted to find Li Yunze, she didn''t want Gu Beichen to know... The two naturally cooperated very well. "Why did you sprain?" Gu Beichen frowned and squatted half. His sight fell on Jane Mo''s right ankle, which was still slightly red. "Walking carelessly..." Jane Mo prevaricated at will and looked at Li Yunze with some sadness. Li Yunze took a panoramic view of Jian Mo''s eyes, quietly got up and looked at her ankle. Seeing that it was ok, several talents went out to dinner together. Jian Mo didn''t drive himself. After getting on Gu Beichen''s car, he asked, "did you tell Yunze about Yining and 11?" "No..." Gu Beichen replied calmly. "Stingy." Jane skimmed her mouth. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, looked at Jian Mo and said, "their things are not what you think... There are a lot of things." "Huh?" Jane Mo whispered curiously. Gu Beichen sighed, "anyway, let Yunze know the existence of one by one may not be a good thing." Jane Moshen sighed, "is it true that if you live in a rich family, you will have a lot of involuntarily?" "Maybe..." Gu Beichen''s eyes fell in front, and there was a touch of emotion in the depths of the ink pupil. Feeling Gu Beichen''s faint breath, Jian Mo didn''t continue this topic She wants to know his past, she wants to help him out Only in this way can he not be influenced by those years. However, Jane Mo didn''t expect that she would know what happened in that year under such circumstances. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao sat by the river of Los Angeles and looked at the inky River under the light. His sight gradually deepened. Jane stringer came over and sat down beside him. "I heard you went to find Xiaomo today?" Chu Zixiao looked at him and hissed coldly, "are you sure you heard?" Jian Heng smiled, "yes, I followed you." Chu Zixiao snorted coldly and didn''t speak. "Xiaomo has been possessed by Gu Beichen..." Jian Heng said coldly, "you still use such a gentle means. Do you think she will change her mind?" Chu Zixiao frowned and glanced at Jane truss. Jian Chang''s eyes fell on the river in front, with a gloomy smile at the corners of his mouth. His eyes narrowed slightly and said slowly: "only when you use a tough attitude, will she put her eyes on you... The more you resist, the harder you want to be." Chu Zixiao coagulated her eyes. Jian Heng converged his eyes and looked at Chu Zixiao, opposite his eyes. "Zixiao, believe me, Xiaomo is my sister. Now... No one knows her better than me." He narrowed his eyes slightly, caught Chu Zixiao''s psychological weakness at the moment, and slowly opened his mouth, "you only need to press her inner pride with momentum, she will be yours..." Jian Heng''s words fell into Chu Zixiao''s heart like a seed. He resisted, but... He couldn''t stop it from taking root! Chapter 375 In the elegant western restaurant, there is a comfortable music slowly overflowing. Gu Beichen went to the bathroom. Li Yunze casually ate with a knife and fork, and slightly raised his eyes to see the hesitant Jian mo. "I''m not looking for my feet, am I?" Li Yunze spoke faintly, and his voice was full of evil charm. Jane Mo glanced at the direction of Beichen''s going to the bathroom, glanced at the corner of her lower lip, took back her sight and said, "I''ll find you again when you''re free..." she paused. Seeing Li Yunze''s curiosity, she couldn''t help saying, "it''s estimated that it''s a little unclear for a while." Li Yunze smiled with evil charm in his mouth, "about Beichen?" Jane nodded. Li Yunze narrowed his eyes slightly, and his originally soft vision showed a touch of depth. "If you want to ask about Beichen''s past..." Li Yunze paused and slowly opened his mouth when Jian Mo was nervous. "Sorry, I have no comment." Jane Mo frowned at the moment, "why?" "When Beichen should talk to you, he will naturally tell you..." Li Yunze put down his knife and fork, took his napkin and wiped the corners of his mouth. "If he didn''t say, it means he''s not ready yet, I don''t suggest you inquire." Jane Mo''s heart suddenly became heavy Li Yunze said that he must know that. However, it is also because of knowing and not saying that it obviously hides things. Li Yunze saw through the tangle of Jian Mo and couldn''t help laughing, "don''t put pressure on yourself..." He took the wine glass and sipped, "Jane Mo, when you walked south, tell me... He said, he told you, I hope you don''t leave Beichen no matter what happens?" Jane nodded. "HMM." "This is what I also want to tell you..." Li Yunze said. "Boss long is the most transparent one among us. He believes in you, and Nannan and I will not doubt you. Just..." Li Yunze put down the red wine glass. When Gu Beichen came towards them, he said quietly: "Jane Mo, when many things pile up in front of you, can you really determine your mind?" Jane Mo wanted to speak, but was blocked by Li Yunze. "You don''t have to answer me... You just need to answer your heart!" His voice fell, and Gu Beichen already came to him. Jane Mo didn''t answer. She understood Li Yunze''s meaning. "What are you talking about?" Gu Beichen felt the slight dignity of Jian mo. Li Yunze did not laugh. Jane Mo said with a small and proud face: "discussing why men like women''s long hair... Yunze said it''s because of the Oedipus complex!" "..." Gu Beichen suddenly twitched at the corners of his mouth. Jane Mo said with a serious face, "I was thinking, if so... Should I consider not growing long hair? Otherwise, what if your feelings for me change later?" "...." Gu Beichen continued speechless, but when a sharp look was projected on Li Yunze, it was almost the same as two knives. Li Yunze said he was innocent... He was also shot lying down. ¡­¡­ Lu man looked uneasily at Cen Lanxi opposite and swallowed, "Mrs. Gu, I''m afraid... I can''t help it." "What? I''ll give you a chance, but you can''t decide?" CEN Lanxi raised her eyebrows coldly, but her noble face was sneered at. "It''s not a problem that can''t be done..." Lu man frowned. "I can''t control Chen Shao at all." She is not a fool. She has today''s status entirely because of Gu Beichen. The last time he used him to hype, he has warned If she dares to continue this time, she can guarantee that Gu Beichen will destroy everything she has now. Yes, she admits... She likes Gu Beichen. However, I didn''t like it enough to destroy everything in order to get him. "What do you have to worry about with me?" CEN Lanxi seemed to see Lu man''s worry, "if you have a relationship with your family, it will only be better for your career." Such words to ordinary people, perhaps immediately moved. Unfortunately, Lu man has been in this circle for too long and can maintain her current position. Although Gu Beichen has made great efforts... However, her timid maintenance is also a great contribution. CEN Lanxi is right. She has a relationship with Gu family. Even if it is an affair, she will benefit in the end. But often things have two sides Finally, if Gu Beichen gets angry, cen Lanxi will only abandon her chess piece in order to appease her son. "Sorry to disappoint Mrs. Gu..." Lu man put his hand on his leg and clenched it. "Chen Shao is your son. You should know your son best... What he doesn''t want. I''m afraid no one can control him now." Lu man took the bag aside. "Excuse me." Then she got up and nodded slightly with Cen Lanxi, turned and left first. She doesn''t know why Cen Lanxi doesn''t like Jianmo, but she knows that Gu Beichen likes Jianmo With this alone, I''m afraid Cen Lanxi couldn''t stop it, so she thought of letting her intervene. CEN Lanxi didn''t expect Lu man to refuse. She looked at her back and left with a bad face. "Sister-in-law?" Suddenly, a voice came from behind. CEN Lanxi narrowed her eyes and frowned when she saw that it was Gu mohuai. CEN Lanxi didn''t like him. Gu mohuai was involved in the affairs of Gu Moyuan and Su mo. Moreover, once a person has a handle in another person''s hand, he can''t like it if he wants to like it. "Second uncle also eats here?" CEN Lanxi said hello lukewarm. Gu mohuai smiled and sat down opposite. "Where''s big brother?" CEN Lanxi said coldly, "he didn''t come." "Oh!" Gu muhuai smiled and replied, "I invited some friends to dinner. I just left... I came here when I saw you." CEN Lanxi glanced coldly, and then asked arrogantly, "is the second uncle coming back this time to continue to compete with Beichen for the emperor?" For her straight to the point, Gu muhuai just smiled, "my sister-in-law thinks too much. I just came back to celebrate my mother''s birthday." "So... At the shareholders'' meeting, Beichen stepped aside?" CEN Lanxi sneered and didn''t believe Gu mohuai''s words at all. Gu mohuai looked down at Cen Lanxi and said, "take a form... Don''t I give free publicity to the emperor?" "Hum!" CEN Lanxi snorted coldly, "it''s getting late. I''ll go back first." With that, she wanted to get up. "What''s the hurry, sister-in-law?" Gu silently opened his mouth. CEN Lanxi''s heart suddenly "cluttered" and looked at him suspiciously. Gu mohuai smiled lightly, "I haven''t come back for several years. My sister-in-law and brother have traveled around the world for so long... I haven''t caught up with Beichen and Jian mo before." Referring to Jian Mo, cen Lanxi''s face suddenly became bad. "Sister-in-law..." Gu mohuai''s eyes became deep, "... Don''t want to talk to me about her?" "Gu muhuai, what do you want to do?" CEN Lanxi''s breath became rapid and her voice trembled. Gu mohuai''s face remained unchanged, but slowly said, "nothing... Just want to remind my sister-in-law that Jane Zhanfeng''s death... That''s all!" Chapter 376 CEN Lanxi''s face turned pale for a moment. "You, what do you want?" CEN Lanxi stared and her voice became trembling. Gu muhuai still smiled quietly. That kind of smile was always stiff in the corners of his mouth, and did not spread for a minute. It was strange. "Don''t be nervous, sister-in-law..." Gu murhuai said in a faint voice. "Since I helped sister-in-law hide this, I wouldn''t tell it." CEN Lanxi still stared at Gu and didn''t believe what he said. This person is different from Gu Moyuan''s front and back. He always seizes other people''s weaknesses and pinches them relentlessly Now that he mentioned this matter, he must have followed up. "What does the second uncle want to do? Just say it..." Cen Lanxi gritted his teeth. "However, when it comes to Beichen, I won''t agree." The expression on Gu mohuai''s face didn''t change, just said: "sister-in-law is really nervous..." He dropped his words and got up with a relaxed sigh. "Isn''t sister-in-law going back?" Gu muhuai smiled. "I have another game, so I''ll go first... Alas, when I come back, everyone of my friends wants to see me. I feel busy and have no time to deal with business." With a sigh, Gu muhuai looked at Cen Lanxi, whose face had not recovered, and stepped away It feels good. What he likes most is to grasp other people''s weaknesses. Gu mohuai got into the car and smiled at the corners of his mouth Gu Beichen''s weakness is probably Jian Mo? Tut Tut, I thought Shen Chu could control him, but obviously... Shen Chu didn''t have enough weight. What about this Jane foam now? Gu mohuai''s smile deepened at the corners of his mouth, and there was a thin smile overflow at the bottom of his eyes When he started the car and left, there was already excitement in the car... He felt very comfortable at the thought of that messy atmosphere. Yes, only when Gu Moyuan and all of them are uncomfortable will he be comfortable! Gu mohuai narrowed his eyes slightly and looked at the traffic ahead with a vicious revenge... It was accumulated in his heart for a long time and finally broke out. CEN Lanxi sat in the restaurant and didn''t walk. Her hands trembled uncontrollably. She kept turning things in her mind. At that moment, her body seemed to be getting cold. When the mobile phone suddenly rang, cen Lanxi only felt a "collapse" in her head, and a wire was torn off. With a dull recollection, cen Lanxi reacted that the mobile phone rang She hurriedly took it out of her bag. It was Gu Moyuan. She took a deep breath and answered the phone, "Moyuan?" "Is it over?" Gu Moyuan said, "I''ll let the driver pick you up?" He looked at the time. It was already more than ten o''clock in the evening. "OK..." Cen Lanxi answered, then hung up the phone and lay back on the sofa. At night, it becomes silent in the gradual extinction of thousands of lights. Wandering heavy rain is like trying to cover up everything in the world. It''s falling ''clattering'', with a strange smell of death. CEN Lanxi approached Jian Zhanfeng step by step. She looked at him coldly, and her eyes burst out the same frightened eyes as wild animals. Jian Zhanfeng retreated step by step, with some helplessness, "how can you believe me? The death of Mo Huai and Cen Yulan has nothing to do with me..." "Why not?" CEN Lanxi roared sharply, "no, what are you afraid of? No, what are you avoiding... No, why are you evasive from beginning to end? Jian Zhanfeng, the murderer is you, you are..." Jane Zhanfeng was worried, "it''s not me!" "It''s you!" CEN Lanxi didn''t give Jian Zhanfeng a chance to argue, but shouted sharply, "what I saw with my own eyes, can it be false?" "If it''s really me, the law will punish me..." Jian Zhanfeng felt that the reason with Cen Lanxi didn''t make sense at all, but shouted under the heavy rain, "the law is fair, I''m innocent!" "No, you''re cunning..." Cen Lanxi''s eyes have become scarlet in the rain. "Since the law can''t punish you, I''ll punish you for the law..." The roar echoed in the heavy rain and became weak. As if, in the anger of God, no one can resist. "Ah --" The sound of panic broke the silence in the bedroom. Gu Moyuan suddenly woke up and sat up. He hurriedly turned on the bedside lamp. He saw Cen Lanxi sitting there panting with a cold sweat on his face. "What''s the matter?" Gu Moyuan looked at Cen Lanxi in horror, "have a nightmare?" CEN Lanxi kept panting and didn''t speak, but his eyes were full of fear after fear. Gu Moyuan frowned, got out of bed and poured her a glass of water. "Drink some water first." CEN Lanxi mechanically took over the sound of "Gulong Gulong" drinking water, because he was too nervous. Gu Moyuan took Cen Lanxi''s drinking cup and put it on the bedside table. Then he sat down, "what''s the matter?" He frowned. "I''ve been a little uneasy since you came back." CEN Lanxi trembled even more when she thought of the situation in her dream. "I want Beichen and Jian Mo to divorce. They must divorce... They must divorce!" Finally, cen Lanxi roared. Gu Moyuan frowned, "Lanxi, you know it''s impossible..." "No, no..." Cen Lanxi lifted the quilt and got out of bed. "I have to divorce them. The family can''t have Jane''s people... No!" CEN Lanxi was like a nightmare. She was sleepy and walked out, as if she couldn''t wait for a moment. She was going to find Gu Beichen now. Gu Moyuan hurried to catch up and grabbed Cen Lanxi at the entrance of the stairs. "Lanxi, are you crazy?" "Mo yuan, will you persuade Beichen and Jian Mo to divorce?" CEN Lanxi grabbed Gu Moyuan''s sleeve and begged in her eyes. Gu Moyuan frowned, "Lanxi, calm down..." he slowed down his voice and tried to appease Cen Lanxi. "First tell me what you just dreamed of, huh?" CEN Lanxi shook her head and totally resisted, "Jian Zhanfeng is dead... Jian Zhanfeng is dead... He is dead!" "...." Gu Moyuan''s eyes were suddenly cold, and he didn''t expect Cen Lanxi to have this dream again. He held her in his arms. "It''s all over, it''s all over... Don''t think about it, you know? You''re not in good health, don''t think about it, huh?" CEN Lanxi didn''t answer, but muttered in Gu Moyuan''s arms, "let Beichen and Jian Mo divorce, let them divorce... They must divorce. How can they be together? No... no..." Jian Mo slept a little uneasy. In a daze, she was anxious and kept turning left and right. Gu Beichen opened his eyes and slowly tilted his head to look at Jane Mo turning. Gradually, the center of her eyebrows tightened "Mo''er?" Gu Beichen called softly. Chapter 377 Jane Mo slowly opened her eyes. In the dark, her eyes were opposite Looking at Gu Beichen''s deep sight, Jane Mo''s uneasy heart gradually calmed down. "Did I wake you up?" Jane Mo felt a little guilty. Gu Beichen turned on the bedside lamp, adjusted a soft light, and then looked at Jian Mo again, "what''s the matter?" Jane Mo was a little blocked in her heart, which made her uneasy all night It seems that my body is always tired recently, but today I don''t feel sleepy at all. It''s not only because of Zixiao, but even... I feel uneasy lying in Gu Beichen''s arms at night. The anonymous text message gradually made her think of Gu Beichen''s mother for no reason. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but looked at Jian Mo quietly, waiting for her to sort out her thoughts. "Ah Chen..." "Huh?" Jane morhu raised her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen. She endured and said slowly, "I''m suddenly afraid..." Gu Beichen frowned, "why?" "I don''t know..." Jane Mo shook her head honestly. "I don''t know why. Suddenly I thought of your mother... I think she seems to try her best to separate us!" Then Jane Mo hung her eyes. She didn''t want to row with his mother in front of him, but the anxiety at the moment was not because of Chu Zixiao and anonymous text messages, but because of Cen Lanxi Although, it looks strange. Gu Beichen sighed and hugged Jian Mo in his arms. His chin gently rubbed the top of her hair and said, "no one can separate us... Understand?" Jane Mo was silent. Gu Beichen''s words didn''t settle her as usual, but made her more and more uneasy "Shouldn''t I be with you?" Jane Mo said in a dull voice. "What nonsense?" Gu Beichen immediately cooled his face, and the lines on Junyan also stretched. Jane Mo hung her eyes with a heavy heart. "I always feel that the whole world is against me when I am with you..." her voice was a little muffled and helpless. Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo more tightly, "as long as we two think we should be together, that''s good!" The low voice showed the magnetism of soft comfort. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly. He just thought that Jian Mo''s uneasiness was because he saw Chu Zixiao at noon There is a touch of unhappiness in the depths of Mo Tong. I want Zixiao to understand something. It seems that it''s too conservative! Jane Mo listened to Gu Beichen''s strong heartbeat, her long eyelashes fanned and sighed. Is she too pretentious? Or too worried about gain and loss? However, she thought that if it was possible to separate from Gu Beichen... She suffocated badly. Jane Mo lifted her eyes and slightly broke away from Gu Beichen''s arms. Just when he stared and didn''t understand, she leaned over and kissed his cold thin lip Kiss, with a desire to have, hot at the touch of fire. At night, two people only have each other thoroughly, as if they can reassure each other. Jian Mo responded to Gu Beichen''s advance more enthusiastically than usual, cooperating with all his actions to make each other enjoy each other most incisively and vividly. Such enjoyment is not only the original desire, but also the Madness on each other''s firm road to the future. Day by day, the biggest news in Los Angeles seems to have something to do with Jane Morse. Su Junli, the third son of the Su family in the north of the city, will be engaged to Enron, the daughter of the east of the city; Grandma Gu, who has always been low-key and doesn''t like extravagance, will have a big 85 year old birthday; And... The tension of the emperor. The media also do not know where to get the news. Some people buy imperial retail shares at a high price, which is beyond the reach of those who want to get involved. After Jian Mo finished the paper mold, he looked at the design sketch, and then checked one side of the 3D effect drawing. When he saw that there were no mistakes, he sighed secretly. The phone rang at the right time. Jane Mo took it. Seeing that it was late, she picked it up. "Sister Mo," a cheerful voice came to me in the evening, "Huaye told me to compare the draft this Friday, that is, the day after tomorrow!" After a pause, she asked, "have you... Finished?" Jian Mo looked at the paper mold and sighed, "almost, just right..." "Tut Tut, sister Mo is sister Mo, we are all white worried..." Xiang night''s voice was full of worship, and then gave a ''OK'' gesture to the nervous mu Xiaoran. It''s really hard for Jane Mo to finish such a large film and television interior city alone. However, she doesn''t want to have another accident after winning and losing the emperor project Not so strong, but don''t want to live up to the people who trust her. Friday. In the evening, he accompanied Jian Mo to participate in the China Entertainment competition. The paper molds were first received by the people of China entertainment. Jane Mohe enters the elevator at night and sees Shen Chu coming. She presses the elevator. Shen Chu stepped in. The corners of his mouth were full of self-confidence and arrogance. He glanced at Jian Mo at night. Jane Mo looked indifferent, but politely nodded with Shen Chu. Xiangwan glanced at Shen Chu with disdain in his eyes. As the elevator climbed, the air in the narrow car gradually condensed. "Ding" came, and the elevator door opened, but for a moment, everyone seemed to have a frozen heart and slowly relaxed. "Have you heard?" Someone whispered in the conference room, "the president of Huaye should personally participate in the comparison... It is conceivable that Huaye pays more attention to this film and television city this time." "If the investment exceeds one billion yuan, can we ignore it?" Someone rolled his eyes. "Also..." "After the completion of this film and Television City, the leading position of China entertainment in the domestic entertainment industry may be completely established." "That''s not necessarily..." someone retorted, "the emperor has entered the entertainment industry and invested in private TV stations. With such strong backing, I''m afraid Huayu built a film and television city to prevent the emperor from taking the limelight?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The voice of whispering came quickly. Jane Mo was so indifferent that she had no interest at all. However, she was not interested, and soon others brought the topic to her and Shen Chu. One is the daughter of JK group, which is controlled by the emperor, or Gu Beichen''s first girlfriend, and the other is Gu Beichen''s wife... Both of them come to compete for this project. There are still some elements for everyone to watch the play. Shen Chu didn''t care. Let''s say that from beginning to end, he sat there like the queen, full of pride. Compared with her, Jane Mo has a calm face. She has talked so much about these things now "Sister Mo!" In the evening, he glared at the speakers with an angry face. Is there such a gossip in person? Really no quality! Looking at Xiang night''s angry appearance, Jane Mo smiled, "put your mind on the design..." Xiangwan really admires Jian Mo for her ability to marry such an enviable husband. However, she is never arrogant and impatient. What she does is the same as before. Chapter 378 As time drew closer, someone opened the door of the conference room, and then... Chen Xuan came in. When Jian Mo saw that it was Chen Xuan, she was slightly stunned. She didn''t expect that the president of Huayu, the leading entertainment in Los Angeles, would be Li Jinxi''s husband. But she was only surprised for a moment, and then recovered her calm. She was completely a designer''s posture, not arrogant or impetuous. Chen Xuan inadvertently glanced over Jian Mo, just like a stranger, but moved away at a glance. "First of all, thank you for your support for China entertainment film and Television City..." Chen manifesto said casually and angrily, "I hope to see amazing works later." Under Chen Xuan''s opening remarks, the curtain of today''s comparison was opened. The film city is a large-scale architectural design. There are not many qualified people who can participate, and they need to hand in paper molds. On the contrary, the idea meeting is not too long. The draft comparison was still decided by lot. Unexpectedly, Shen Chu was the first, followed by Jian mo. Everyone is secretly talking about Xiaojiu. For two women who both come out of UCL and have a relationship with Gu Beichen, it''s good to gossip and relax. Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo, and there was a touch of contempt at the bottom of his eyes Jane Mo sincerely hooked the corners of her mouth and expressed her blessing. However, such sincerity became a provocation in Shen Chu''s eyes. Jane Mo said she was powerless Is there a big problem with her expression ability because she didn''t graduate from the Department of Chinese and the Department of acting? So that no one can understand her! Kind plug... Fortunately, Gu Beichen has enough IQ to understand her at any time. Jian Mo listened carefully to Shen Chu''s design and her design concept. At first, she just held a trace of attitude, and then she really admired Shen Chu is also worthy of UCL. Her whole design is bold and innovative, which makes the film and television city reach the maximum point not only in terms of shooting purpose, but also in terms of tourism. "What do you think?" Jane Mo looked and asked the night. He was very selfish and said, "how''s it going..." Jane Mo looked at xiaonizi''s awkward appearance and couldn''t help laughing. "Now let''s welcome Xiangyu designer Jian mo..." Jian Mo got up at the same time as the other party''s words fell, and looked at Shen Chu calmly. Shen Chu''s eyes are full of contempt under pride. Jian Mo is just calm and right. It''s a pity that Chen Chumo and Chen xuanmo have a spark of peace today. Such people are either arrogant and disdainful, or strong enough not to despise others to set off themselves. I just don''t know what kind of Jane Mo is. After watching Shen Chu''s design, the people who participated in the design comparison secretly played side drums one by one It can be said that Shen Chu made a good start and put pressure on others. However, also because it is too good, if the back is too dull, it will make people lose their nature. Jian Mo nodded with everyone and began to explain his design. Chen Xuan''s eyes fell on Jian Mo, as if he was only interested in her Unlike Li Jinxi''s helpless appearance of being drunk hard that day, she is professional, serious and confident at the moment. And her design, just like her people Chen Xuan slightly drew a faint arc around the corner of his mouth. The opening of these two people made the people under full pressure? Different from Shen Chu''s design for maximizing business, Jian Mo''s design can be said that at first glance, there is not much to shine However, when one considers all the small details, you will find that such a design should exist. Of course, this is not a rejection of Shen Chu On the contrary, because of their personality, they designed things with the characteristics of their own personality. "This design is just like this..." suddenly, someone hissed, "is the level of UCL people receding now, or do I expect too much of some people? It''s not as amazing as the original emperor club!" Everyone looked at the speaker, who was afraid to fall into his own thinking. He didn''t find that Jian Mo''s speech was over, but his voice was particularly loud. The man''s embarrassed corners of his mouth twitched, but he could only harden his head and look at Jian mo. Jian Mo said calmly, "someone told me that safety is the most basic requirement for the existence of buildings, no matter where they are used." Chen Xuan smiled slightly at the corners of his mouth, and Shen Chu''s face changed slightly. "Although it is a film and Television City, we need artistic and innovative modeling. However, functionality and aesthetics need to be balanced..." Jian Mo said leisurely, "he also said to me that architecture is not an empty existence, but should match with the people, things and even scenery around." Jian Mo chuckled. "At the beginning of the design, I occasionally heard some people talk to me about the fundamentals of the design, but I can''t understand..." she paused, and there was a light gradually overflowing in her eyes. "However, after listening to what he said, I seemed to be suddenly enlightened and knew why I didn''t understand the minor problems over the years." The meeting room was quiet. Someone wanted to refute Jian Mo''s words, but they found that they had no way to refute. "Thank you!" Jane Mo nodded slightly, handed the USB flash disk of the design draft to the person in charge, and then went to her seat. Shen Chu''s eyes fell on Jian Mo with a slight chill, but Jian Mo just smiled faintly and didn''t let out too much emotion. Looking at her "proud" appearance, Shen Chu gradually clenched his hand. ¡­¡­ Gu Moyuan sat in the rest room with a heavy heart and nervousness, feeling a little anxious. Gu muhuai poured him a glass of water. "Brother, don''t be too nervous. It''s not best... Yes, you and I know." Gu Moyuan''s heart is heavy. At the moment, it''s not Jane truss''s problem at all. If Jian Heng was really his son, what did he really have with Sumer in those years It''s a big blow to Gu Moyuan, who has been disciplined since childhood and has no great ability, but rarely makes mistakes. "Dong Dong!" There was a knock at the door, and then someone came in. "Did the result come out?" Gu mohuai came forward and asked, as if he was the one in a hurry. "The two comparison results you sent came out..." the man handed a document bag to Gu mohuai, "the proof is inside." "OK, please..." "You''re welcome!" The man nodded with a smile and turned away. At the moment he closed the door, Gu Moyuan got up quickly and took the document bag in Gu mohuai''s hand with some trembling. He swallowed uncontrollably. He took a deep breath and opened Slowly draw out the comparison results inside... The line of sight didn''t stop and fell directly on the bottom result. Chapter 379 The result of stabbing "99.99%" stunned Gu Moyuan''s eyes, "how is it possible?" Gu mohuai frowned slightly, took the identification results, and couldn''t help staring, "brother, this..." "No, how?" Gu muhuai took two steps back and sat down on the chair, his eyes completely dull. It seems that I don''t know how to face such a result at all. Neither he nor Sumer was impressed by the events of that year If two people really have something, why didn''t she come to him and give birth to the child? Even if she wants to, what about Jane Zhanfeng? The breath gradually became short, and Gu Moyuan''s eyebrows were screwed together. Gu mohuai sighed deeply, looked at Gu Moyuan, and then heard a "tear" sound. "What are you doing?" Gu Moyuan looked at Gu mohuai blankly. "It''s ok if you know me..." Gu mohuai tore the comparison report to pieces and threw it into the trash can. "Brother, don''t think about it... I said it. I''ll help you look after it more in the future." He sighed deeply, "anyway, they are all family children, and I don''t have a son... Let''s make compensation to him!" Gu Moyuan has completely disorganized his sense of propriety. Such a sudden result has made him a circle. He can only listen to Gu mohuai. Out of the private sector, Gu Moyuan sat in the car, feeling complicated. Now Su Mo is gone. Now he knows that Jian Heng is also his son, which makes Gu Moyuan unacceptable. But the result of paternity test is in front of us Gu Moyuan was lying on his seat, and the sunlight outside came in through the windshield, making people a little anxious. Forbearance, Gu Moyuan called Gu Beichen. "Dad?" Gu Beichen connected the phone and made a sound. "In the company?" Gu Moyuan asked. Gu Beichen calmly answered, "Hmm!" "Are you busy later?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "OK!" "Then I''ll come to you..." "Good!" Gu Beichen hung up the phone and looked at Xiao Jing. "The next meeting will be cancelled. Let Susan see tomorrow''s itinerary and insert it." "OK!" Xiao nodded. "In addition..." Gu Beichen pondered slightly, and there was no emotion on his cold, carved face. "Fix a seat in the evening." "Chen Shao wants to invite..." Xiao Jing asked with a frown. "Jane Mo!" Xiao Jing twitched at the corner of his mouth and immediately said, "Chen Shao, where did you learn these romantic tricks... They are all married and often the same as falling in love?" Gu Beichen picked a wanton arc at the end of his eyebrow, and the eagle''s eyes looked sharply at Xiao Jing. Xiao Jing immediately swallowed, "I''ll cancel the meeting..." he said, and then turned away when nothing had happened. However, at the moment of closing the door, I was lucky to add, "I''ll fix you a place with a good atmosphere." Gu Beichen stared at the closed office door, with a trace of helplessness on his cold face. Looking out of the window, Gu Beichen got up and walked over Mo''er doesn''t know whether the pressure of the design drawing is too high or something recently. It seems that she is always unstable when sleeping. With a slight sigh, Gu Beichen lowered his eyes. At the right moment, the "buzzing" vibration of the mobile phone came. He took it out and saw that it was Chen Xuan''s. He picked it up under a slightly invisible frown. "The comparison is over..." Chen Xuan''s evil mouth was full of jokes. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep, "Hmm!" "That''s it?" Chen Xuan was disappointed. "Shouldn''t you ask me about Jian Mo and Shen Chu?" "No need..." Gu Beichen said indifferently. Chen Xuan felt bored and rubbed his nose before he said, "seriously, I personally like the design of both people. Now it''s difficult to choose... I want to hear your opinion." Gu Beichen looked deeply. "Listen to Jinxi, you are also a top student of UCL..." Chen Xuan smiled. "I''ll pass the pictures of the two to you later, and you can analyze them." "Not afraid of my favoritism?" Gu Beichen slightly narrowed his eagle eyes and asked. Chen Xuan shrugged, "it doesn''t matter who happens, because I like it very much..." "The problem is," Gu Beichen said coldly, "how much do you want me to pay?" "..." Chen Xuan twitched at the corners of his mouth, "sure enough, the merchant''s true color!" Gu Beichen said lightly, "Shen Chu''s design likes the sword to walk at the wrong edge, but he is not arrogant. Jian Mo''s mind is bold but delicate, and each has his own strengths... The rest depends on what you need." Chen Xuan looked at the two final pictures on the big screen in front of him and couldn''t help sighing, "saying is equal to not saying!" Then he hung up angrily. Listening to the hang up tone, Gu Beichen''s ink pupil deepened, then resumed his indifferent eyes and dialed Jane mo "Dinner together in the evening, huh?" Gu Beichen said softly. Jane Mo glanced at the imperial group in the business circle like a giant beast, and smiled, "OK." At the right time, there was a knock on the door in Gu Beichen''s office. He looked back and saw Susan open the door. Gu Moyuan came in. "You have something to do first... I have to go back to the company." Jane opened her mouth. Gu Beichen''s eyes softened a little, "well, I''ll call you when I''m finished here." Hung up the phone and rubbed against Jian Mo in the evening, "sister Mo, we Gu always look tight enough? Don''t you mind..." "That''s because you have no one watching, so you say sour grapes!" Jane Mo proudly raised her eyebrows, looked at Xiang night and smiled, "let''s go!" "Jane Mo!" Shen Chu came out at the right time. Jane Mo cried in her heart and wanted to roar back... Please let go! "You didn''t finish this design alone, did you?" Shen Chu said coldly that the man had come to Jian mo. Jane Mo frowned at the moment. "I didn''t design it alone. Am I with you?" "Hum!" Shen Chu sneered, "your design is different from your previous style. I''m afraid someone helped you?" Jane Mo really wanted to slap Shen Chu and wake him up. "First of all, there is no stipulation that this design must be completed by one person." Jian Mo''s voice was serious, looked at Shen Chu''s line of sight and said slightly, "secondly, if you think you have lost to my design before the results are released, I have nothing to say if you want to use this means to find psychological balance." "You think too much..." Shen Chu sneered, and his good-looking eyebrows and eyes gently picked a sneering arc. "You said that the design concept someone told you was what Beichen said?" Although she was in doubt, it was obvious that she had affirmed it. "And then?" Jian Mo sneered, "next, do you want to say that ah Chen actually guided me in this design, and even... He may have completed it all?" Chapter 380 "I didn''t say, that''s what you said..." Shen Chu sneered. Jane Mo sighed quietly, with a proud helplessness on her face, "I really feel sad for you..." "What do you mean?" Shen Chu immediately changed his face. "Shen Chu, you are talented, and you are also proud..." Jian Mo youyou said, "but you have forced yourself into a dead end... This will not only limit your thinking, but also destroy you." "Why do you say that?" Shen Chu clenched his teeth and stared at Jian mo. Jane Mo smiled, "with... Your pride!" Shen Chu immediately dilated his pupils and stared at Jian Mo in a daze. For a moment, he forgot his reaction. Jian Mo took a deep look at Shen Chu, didn''t say anything, turned around and signaled to get out of the car at night. "This Shen Chu is too self righteous..." Xiang Leng hissed and looked at Shen Chu through the window with a look of dissatisfaction. Jane Mo sighed and didn''t speak. Do people become sharp when they don''t love? But Junli didn''t... Didn''t he? Jian Mo drove all the way to Lingyu international. On the way, she kept complaining about Shen Chu at night... However, as a designer, she praised Shen Chu''s design. Shen Chu''s design is really up to standard. At least... Jian Mo thinks that Shen Chu is the only one who can compete with her today. "Eh, that''s right..." Xiang night suddenly gave a cry of surprise and looked sideways at Jian Mo driving. "Sister Mo, what do you mean by Shen Chu''s words just now? And... What do you mean by refuting her that the design was guided and completed by general Gu?" Jane Mo has a headache. She looks at the curious baby, and she doesn''t understand. Why are there so many problems in this girl, so energetic and not tired? "Sister Mo, sister Mo, come on, don''t we always know how to design?" Xiang night stared at Jian Mo like a curious baby and waited for her answer. Jian Mo sighed and said, "well, he came out of UCL..." "Isn''t it?" Xiang night opened his mouth in surprise, "God, President Gu is also learning design." Jian Mo looked at it and said calmly, "he''s a minor..." "..." Xiang Wan twitched at the corner of his mouth, hugged his fist as if he had taken a dagger, and then "ended" himself. "Alas, I admire Mr. Gu more and more..." Xiang night turned his mouth. "Sister Mo, you said that he has a good face and is a rich n generation. He speaks by strength and doesn''t let people live." Jane Mo smiled at the corners of her mouth, looked a little deep, and didn''t answer. However, after such a smile, gradually, I felt a touch of sour in my heart. If let Xiangwan know that Gu Beichen used to be such a sunny person, would he be more booed? With a deep sigh, Jane Mo felt that she should find an opportunity to talk to Gu Beichen about the past ¡­¡­ Emperor, President''s office. Gu Beichen calmly drank coffee and looked at Gu Moyuan sitting aside. "You didn''t come here just to have a cup of coffee?" "No..." Gu Moyuan felt a little heavy. He wanted to ask Gu Beichen how he would react if he knew he had a brother But on second thought, he was too clever. As long as he said it himself, he might be seen. Gu Moyuan simply gave up before coming in. Now no one knows, only he and Mo Huai know... At most, in the dark, he compensates Jian Heng. "Your mother hasn''t slept well lately..." Gu Moyuan said, "Beichen, do you know what her heart knot is?" "What about ran he?" Gu Beichen put down his coffee cup. "Is it about my divorce with Jane Mo again?" Gu Moyuan''s face was dignified. "I know you don''t want to..." after a pause, he continued, "I just want you to cheat your mother first? When your grandmother''s birthday is over, I''ll take her out of Los Angeles." Here, I have always been bad for Lan Xi''s condition In those days, things at Yujing Lake were like nightmares, pestering her from time to time, which would make her worse sooner or later. "Cheat?" Gu Beichen said softly, "how to cheat?" "For example..." Gu Moyuan was dignified. "Pretend to divorce Jane Mo first, wait..." "Impossible!" Gu Beichen directly interrupted Gu Moyuan, "Dad, if you come here just for this matter, I don''t think it''s necessary to talk about it." After a pause, his cold face was slightly chilly, wiping the alienation under the cold, "I don''t want to emphasize the same thing all the time." Gu Beichen slightly narrowed his eagle eyes and then opened them indifferently, "I''m still that sentence. If I can''t live in peace, I''ll turn a blind eye." Gu Moyuan knew this was the result. He asked, just to find a reason for himself to come, "when you just came here, your mother asked you to go back to the manor for dinner at night..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and said indifferently, "tomorrow." "Huh?" Gu Moqing. "I have something to do tonight." Gu Moyuan didn''t think much. Gu Beichen is the president of the emperor. It''s normal to have dinner occasionally. Seeing Gu Moyuan off, Gu Beichen sat in a chair with his arm supporting the armrest and his hand gently kneading his forehead. There was a faint pain on his indifferent face, which was fleeting. Gu Beichen got up and pressed the internal phone, "let Shang Junhao come up to me." "OK!" Susan answered. About ten minutes later, there was a knock on the door. "Come in!" Gu Beichen closed a document and opened his mouth. Shang Junhao came in, "President..." Gu Beichen motioned and saw that Shang Junhao sat down. Then he asked, "what''s the matter with Ma Dongcheng?" "The net has been closed..." Shang Junhao said seriously. Last time, because of his cooperation, Jian Mo''s design drawings couldn''t participate in the comparison... Although the people inside Xiangyu have been caught, the emperor hasn''t dealt with it yet. The president wanted to follow the vine and feel the melon, but this time, he did have a lot of harvest. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep, "stop first." "Ah?" Shang Junhao looked at Gu Beichen puzzled. "Wait until grandma''s birthday is over... During this time, the other party won''t move. If they catch up too tightly, they won''t catch the big fish." Gu Beichen spoke faintly. Shang Junhao thought and nodded, "OK... President, if it''s all right, I''ll go down first." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and saw that after Shang Junhao left, he just looked at the time. It was almost five o''clock. He got up and took his suit and coat out of the office. "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing hurried to follow, "where are you going?" "Cemetery." Gu Beichen took his pocket with one hand and kept walking to the elevator. Xiao Jing followed together and took Gu Beichen to buy daisies first, and then drove to the cemetery. The sun moved to the West and pulled Gu Beichen''s figure up the steps into a long. Suddenly, Gu Beichen stopped, and the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly. Looking at Gu Moyuan standing in front of Jane Zhanfeng and Su Mo''s tombstone, there was a touch of doubt in the bottom of his eyes Chapter 381 Gu Moyuan stood in front of the tombs of Jian Zhanfeng and Su Mo, with complex expressions on his face and an indescribable look on the bottom of his eyes. He looked at Su Mo''s black-and-white photos, and then fell on Jane Zhanfeng''s photos. The alternating mood of cold and heat seemed to burst him "How?" Gu Moyuan couldn''t help looking at Su Mo and asked, "if it was true, why didn''t you say it at the beginning?" No one can answer him, and only the light wind passing slowly can answer him. Gu Moyuan sighed deeply. Such a sigh is not only the doubt about Jian Heng, but also the unclear feeling about Jian Zhanfeng. However, no matter how complicated the emotion is, all that remains is guilt. But that guilt is not all because of Jane truss. "Lanxi didn''t mean to..." Gu Moyuan''s sharp heart trembled slightly. His mouth kept moving, as if he wanted to say something, but he didn''t know how to say it in the end. Gu Yanfeng looked at the picture of my daughter and said quietly, "don''t swallow it. If you''re right, my daughter will try to get married..." Gu Beichen''s footsteps suddenly stopped, and he frowned imperceptibly. Because of the distance, he didn''t hear the previous words. However, he could still hear the last sentence "good to your daughter" clearly. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Gu Moyuan deeply, with a slight doubt on his cold, carved face. Gu Moyuan''s temples trembled slightly. He felt the sharp sight coming from him. Subconsciously, he looked at the place where he came from When he saw Gu Beichen, he was obviously surprised. Gu Moyuan recalled what he had just said and secretly rejoiced that he had not said anything special. "Why is Dad here?" Gu Beichen converged and walked forward with a slow step. "I..." after Gu Moyuan subconsciously looked at the tombstone, he hurried to say, "I... I heard that they all left, so I came to have a look." Gu Beichen didn''t change his face. He just put the daisy in front of the tombstone, bowed respectfully, and said, "Mom will be unhappy if you come here..." Gu Moyuan twitched at the corners of his mouth and didn''t speak. Gu Beichen leaned over and looked up at Gu Moyuan. "Dad doesn''t object to me being with Jane Mo?" Gu Moyuan only felt an itch in his throat. Facing his extremely excellent and intelligent son educated by his parents, he was a little guilty at the moment. "That''s what you like, isn''t it?" Gu Moyuan asked back, without a positive answer. "But mom doesn''t like it." Gu Beichen''s voice was clearly calm, but it showed a feeling of oppression. Gu Moyuan frowned slightly. "If you want to be nice to Jane, I appreciate it." Gu Beichen youyou said, "but if it''s because of her mother, I think you''re not only unfair to her mother, but also an insult to Jane Mo''s mother, aren''t you?" "...." Gu Moyuan opened his mouth and wanted to say something, but he didn''t say anything at last. The sun moves west. Projected on Gu Beichen''s cold face, there is indifference. When did the son become so indifferent? Gu Moyuan suddenly couldn''t remember Gu Beichen''s previous appearance. It was clear that such days were very long, but he had been blurred. "Beichen..." Gu Moyuan said, "if Jane Mo is the one you really want, I will persuade your mother to accept her." Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Gu Moyuan sighed, "I''ll go first..." Then he looked deeply at Beichen and left with a heavy heart. Gu Beichen didn''t move. After a while, he slowly opened his mouth, "I don''t care if you accept Mo''er, but Mo''er cares..." he paused. He turned and just looked up at Gu Moyuan''s line of sight. After Gu Beichen paused, he slowly opened his mouth, "thank you..." Gu Moyuan stared at Gu Beichen in an instant, some unbelievable. Since then, when has Beichen ever spoken like this? No, He is strong, indifferent and even unscrupulous when he fails to achieve his goal. But now, because of a Jane, I said ''thank you''! Although he is his father Gu Moyuan''s excited mouth began to tremble, but he didn''t say anything. He just nodded with Gu Beichen and turned away with more and more complicated emotions Gu Beichen didn''t take back his sight until Gu Moyuan turned and went down the steps. He looked at Jian Zhanfeng and didn''t speak for a long time. I don''t know how long he stood. Gu Beichen opened his mouth: "suddenly, I''m worried... If things are exposed, will Mo''er still be so firm to me?" In a word, I felt helpless and worried. Gu Beichen sighed and turned away without saying anything ¡­¡­ Jian Mo just left the company and saw Gu Beichen''s car. She said hello to several people who came out together. Her steps obviously accelerated and walked to the car After work, the crowd looked at the luxury car and hummed in their nose. They looked at Jian Mo one by one with obvious disdain under jealousy. Xiao Jing got out of the car, opened the door for Jane Mo, smiled and bowed respectfully: "young lady!" Jane Mo frowned and saw Xiao Jing wink at her. In a flash, Jian Mo understood Xiao Jing''s meaning and couldn''t help laughing helplessly. When she got on the bus, Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen and said in a coquettish voice, "childish!" Gu Beichen glanced at the people in their car indifferently and said coldly, "I spoil my wife. Who has a problem?" Jian Mo chuckled and quickly kissed Gu Beichen on the cheek as Xiao Jing opened the driver''s door. Xiao Jing saw it, but as a kind and omnipotent special assistant, he was just blind. I sent Gu Beichen and Jian Mo to the western restaurant. There was a long piano music in the quiet space. Jane Mo looked around and knew that Gu Beichen had booked the show again. "Local tyrant!" Make complaints about Jane''s "Tucao". Gu Beichen said calmly, "just for you!" Jane Mo felt that Gu Beichen had a cold face on weekdays. Therefore, every time she speaks to her in love, she feels that the whole world is becoming better because of him But because of this, Jian Mo became more curious about Gu Beichen''s kidnapped days. Such curiosity only stems from the desire to let Gu Beichen find his original self! "Mosen..." At the same time, Shi Shaoqin sat in the devil''s kiss box, holding the wine glass with flawless fingers, shaking gently, and a pair of narrow Phoenix eyes fell on the wine. At that moment, it was like the smell of greedy blood. "Qin Shao?" Mosen lowered his eyes and waited for Shi Shaoqin''s next words. "You say..." Shi Shaoqin''s good-looking mouth slightly put on an evil smile, and his vision became deep. "How about I tell Jian Mo Gu Beichen''s past?" Chapter 382 Morsen suddenly raised his eyes in surprise and looked at Shi Shaoqin''s handsome face, some speechless. Lift the cup and put it on your lips Shi Shaoqin sipped slowly, and the mellow smell in his mouth was bloodthirsty. "Inappropriate?" Shi Shaoqin glanced at Mosen, looked at his surprised expression, and smiled at the corners of his mouth. Mosen''s Adam''s apple rolled down, his eyes drooped, and he was stunned. "Since Qin Shao has decided, it''s not inappropriate!" Shi Shaoqin''s smile was deeper. He put down his wine glass, got up, calmly took his pocket with one hand and walked out Morson quickly opened the door. Suddenly, the noise outside poured in like the end of the world. Shi Shaoqin looked unchanged. Under the colorful lights from time to time, he walked through the crowd and walked outside the bar On the way, a woman accosted and was blocked by Mosen one step away from Shi Shaoqin. Standing outside the bar and looking at La at the beginning of the lantern, Shi Shaoqin Feng''s eyes narrowed slightly. "Only by crushing the nerve he wants to wake up," Shi Shaoqin said slowly for no reason, "can he return to the world like me!" His voice was very cold in the summer night. Morson''s heart suddenly became heavy. He didn''t speak, but sighed quietly. Compared with the heaviness here, the western restaurant is soft and sweet. "You must know I can win?" Jane Mo picked her eyebrows, but the corners of her mouth were smiling. Gu Beichen handed Jian mo the cut steak and changed her share. "Don''t you have confidence?" He raised his eyebrows lightly. Jian Mo grinned and didn''t answer. She just said, "Shen Chu thinks you''re involved in this design..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "It doesn''t matter..." said Jane Mo with a smile. "There is a top student who has been on Professor Albert''s mind for so many years. I don''t want to be suspected. It doesn''t seem to fit the plot." Gu Beichen sighed and shook his head, but his mouth was filled with a thin smile. That kind of smile is full of gratifying appreciation. If we put it four years ago, it is estimated that Mo''er would be angry with Shen Chu''s statement. But now, she not only didn''t, but also readily understood... This is a sign that things are becoming more and more mature. Everyone should learn to grow up, even if you don''t want to grow up again Gu Beichen coagulated his eyes imperceptibly, and a touch of emotion crossed his eyes. It was fleeting... It was so fast that people couldn''t catch it. However, Jane Mo still saw it. Her heart was tight at the moment of seeing it, as if someone was holding her heart and pinching it hard. "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen found something wrong with Jian Mo and asked with a slight frown. Jane Mo quickly shook her head, "it''s all right, I just want to milk bag..." Speaking of Jian Jie, Gu Beichen was silent and said, "when the second uncle is gone, pick him up!" "Really?" Jane Mo brightened her eyes in an instant, and her black pupils were full of expectation. Looking at Jian Mo like this, Gu Beichen felt distressed for a while, but Junyan was calm, but the corners of his mouth smiled. Xu Shijian Jie diluted the palpitations at that moment, and Jian Mo was obviously much more relaxed and happy. "Tomorrow I want to see my father and mother..." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and tried to start guiding the topic slowly. "Well, I''ll go with you!" Gu Beichen replied. Jane Mo smiled, her arms supporting the table, her hands holding her cheeks together, and her eyes fell slightly out of the window Neon and lights converge into a bright scene like the Milky way at night. "Before I went to college, what I was most grateful for was the company of my father and mother..." Jane moo said to the corner of her mouth, "at that time, Jane was not addicted to gambling, and everything seemed very beautiful." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was slightly deep. He didn''t speak, but listened quietly. Jian Mo sighed and looked at Gu Beichen. "Later, a lot of things happened at home. It seems that there is only one reason... That is, Jian Heng is addicted to gambling!" Gu Beichen nodded approvingly. Indeed If Jian Heng had not been addicted to gambling, Yuanda would not have empty funds, nor would Jian Mo appear in his bed, and there would be no follow-up step by step. "Now I want to come," Jian Mo was a little nervous and looked at Gu Beichen''s eyes slightly. "Life always seems to change the original track because of an ''opportunity''. Since we can''t resist, we should try to accept..." She swallowed nervously, trying to make her voice sound calm, "ah Chen, are you right?" "Why do you suddenly feel this?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and the eagle''s eyes were completely worried about Jian mo. "..." Jane Mo twitched slightly at the corner of her mouth. Is there a problem with her expression? Didn''t he continue to sigh? Jane Mo innocently fanned her eyelashes, put down her hands and sat right on her body. She said angrily, "I''ll just be hypocritical." Gu Beichen looked deep and didn''t expose Jian Mo''s lie. "I''m grateful for the change of this track to some extent." "Ah?" Jane Mo didn''t hear clearly because she fell into her own thoughts. Gu Beichen looked deeper and deeper, "this gratitude is only for you coming to me..." "And you?" Jane murmured her lips and asked, "what track changes have you come to me?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen without blinking, trying to see some different emotions from his face first. Unfortunately, Gu Beichen can''t see anything on her face The only things she can see are those she knows well. "Thanksgiving..." Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows and tail. When Jian Mo curiously held his breath, he said, "when you wanted a wife, you bumped into my sight." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth, and had an impulse to shoot the knife and fork in front of her directly at the opposite side. She spoke with the most painful memory in her life. Can he die when he mentioned being kidnapped? The baby is unhappy Jane wanted to be angry, but Gu Beichen said love words, and she couldn''t. The only thing she can do is to turn grief and anger into power and eat hard. Looking at Jian Mo, Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is deep She made such a big mistake and just wanted to know his past. He didn''t know it. With the convening of the shareholders'' meeting, he was picked up online, which he allowed He just wants her to slowly accept his past, whether she can accept it or not. Gu Beichen secretly mocked himself. No matter before or now, when did he face a person so unsure? "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen suddenly opened his mouth. Jane Mo curiously raised her eyes and looked at him. She fanned her eyelashes numbly, looking very simple and soft. Gu Beichen''s cold face gradually tightened its lines, and the words "I have time to tell you about my past" have overflowed his throat Chapter 383 The words turned in Gu Beichen''s mouth. In the end, they didn''t say it at last. Some things... Let it be! Thinking, Gu Beichen couldn''t help but fall on the ring of Jian Mo''s ring finger... Gradually, his sight was deep and bottomless, just like an ancient pond, with an urgent desire to break through the darkness in the cold. After dinner, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo went out of the restaurant shoulder to shoulder. Xiao Jing sent them over and left. I don''t know if I finally lost my mind. Along the way, the two basically didn''t talk much. Just after arriving at home, the feelings of mutual repression and wanting to draw or comfort from each other burst out at once. The ambiguous whining sound filled the big bedroom and overlapped with the rough breathing sound. Ups and downs of the body, charming eyes, and each other in the moment of complete integration, as if to tell each other that everything in the past will pass, and a new journey is waiting for them "Well..." At the deepest moment, Gu Beichen didn''t grasp it and sprinkled all his enthusiasm on Jian Mo''s body. Jian Mo''s body was convulsed because of the strong palpitation. She raised her neck slightly and was so moved that she forgot everything. Night, indulgence makes people uneasy, but because in the arms of lovers, people gradually ignore the uneasiness. On Monday morning, the morning light shines on all corners of Los Angeles. Jane Mo is sitting in the conference room, and her mental state is particularly bad. "Sister Mo, you don''t look in good spirits..." Mu Xiaoran asked anxiously looking at Jian mo. Jane Mo shook her head to show that she was fine. "I said Mo Mo, I have to ask your Gu to be more restrained..." Mo Xiaoya smiled and joked, "look what''s bothering you?" As soon as her words fell, there was laughter in the conference room. On the first day after the weekend, the gloomy mood of meeting early in the morning was swept away in an instant. "Hey..." Xiang night sighed with some boredom, "since Chen Shao became sister Mo''s Gu, I have no gossip candidate." "Alas?" Suddenly, someone was surprised, "do you know the news that the three young Su family and Enron are going to be engaged?" "I know!" Nodded to the evening immediately, and then subconsciously looked at Jian mo. Jane Mo''s thoughts were a little absent, but she felt her head was heavy. Xiang night thought that Jian Mo didn''t care, so he continued to start eight, "when I visited the forum last night, I heard something..." "What?" Most people looked at the evening curiously. "I heard that Enron didn''t agree," Xiang wantiao said. "The person who broke the news said that she was Enron''s classmate and said she had a very loving boyfriend and wouldn''t agree to divorce Su Jun at all." "Tut Tut, the news has been released. If it turns yellow, the Su family and an family will have no face?" Shrugged to the evening, "who knows?" Jane Mo finally pulled back her thoughts and listened to everyone talking about Su Junli and Enron, and gradually frowned. Two people who don''t love each other, can even say that they have their own thoughts. Is it really good to get married together? The door of the conference room was pushed open, and Yu Ziyun and Tang Haoyang came in successively. Suddenly, there was a silence in the conference room, which also interrupted Jian Mo''s thoughts. The content of the meeting was very simple. Yu Ziyun got reliable news that the Los Angeles government wanted to develop a theme City focusing on the history of Los Angeles. This is a project with both fame and wealth, which Yu Ziyun attaches special importance to. "This time I will form a group..." Yu Ziyun looked around. "There will be a comparison draft inside. Secretary Wang will give everyone the theme and give me the prototype map before work on Friday." After a pause, his eyes fell on Jane Mo and Andy, "you two will be the deputy team leader of this time, and I will personally lead the team leader." The participants in the meeting could not help but secretly boo and sigh. They didn''t expect Yu Ziyun to lead the team himself this time. Originally, everyone''s attention was not so high, but at this moment, they all took their hearts to their throat. "What else don''t you understand?" Yu Ziyun looked around and asked. The crowd shook their heads, "no more." Yu Ziyun motioned to Secretary Wang. Secretary Wang nodded and got up to hand out the title papers one by one Originally, everyone thought it was the same. However, when I looked around, I was surprised one by one... Because everyone is different. ¡­¡­ Morson parked his car in the temporary parking space of Lingyu international. "Qin Shao, here we are." Shi Shaoqin looked sideways and said, "lead the two men who followed Jian Mo away." "Yes!" Morson answered and dialed out. At the same time, Shi Shaoqin opened the door and got off. He took his pocket with one hand and stepped into Lingyu international with an indifferent step. As if he had been here many times, Shi Shaoqin skillfully entered the elevator and pressed the floor of Xiangyu design department Looking at the rising figures, Shi Shaoqin''s handsome face showed a faint smile. That smile gently raised his already handsome and extraordinary face to a higher level. With a Ding, the elevator arrived. Just as the elevator door opened, Shi Shaoqin lifted his feet and went out. Sun Ke was stunned when he saw Shi Shaoqin. After seeing Gu Beichen, Chu Zixiao and Su Jun leave, Sun Ke felt that the three men had performed the beauty, temperament, elegance and evil charm incisively and vividly. However, when she saw the man in front of her, she realized that a man can also be handsome to a height... That height is that you don''t know how to describe his perfection? "Hello, can I help you?" Sun Ke thought he could be calm, but there was an obvious tremor in his voice. "I need a design," Shi Shaoqin gently hooked the corners of his lips and smiled like a spring breeze, which made people''s hearts melt at that moment. "I don''t know if I''m lucky to see your designer Jian mo after listening to my friend''s introduction." If Sun Ke hadn''t forced himself to hold on, I''m afraid she would have a flower crazy face. How can someone be so beautiful and polite... Even the sound is as good as the soft music pulled out by the violin. "Jane Mo is having a meeting. Please go to the reception room first and have a rest!" Sun Ke finally pulled back his thoughts in Shi Shaoqin''s charming smile and said with some embarrassment. Shi Shaoqin didn''t seem to mind Sun Ke''s gaffe at all. He just nodded with a smile. "What would you like to drink?" "Coffee, thank you!" Sun Ke smiled, went to make coffee and came in. "The meeting is about to end. Please wait a moment." Shi Shaoqin still nodded with a smile, which was obviously an arc smile, but he didn''t feel hypocritical when he did it. After waiting for about ten minutes, there was a knock on the door in the reception room, and the door was pushed open from the outside. Jian Mo has been vaccinated by Sun Ke. However, at the moment of seeing Shi Shaoqin, she was shocked by the man''s evil temperament. "Hello, I''m Jane Mo!" Shi Shaoqin smiled, but his eyes became deep and bottomless. He spoke softly and slowly, "Hello, Shaoshi!" Chapter 384 Jian Mo nodded with a smile and sat down opposite Shi Shaoqin. "What does Mr. Shao want to design?" "I bought a place in the suburbs and wanted to build a villa..." Shi Shaoqin said, "from the whole building structure to interior design, I hope it is completed by the same person." Jian morwei frowned invisibly. If both items were to be carried out, the cycle would be relatively long. "If so, I''m afraid I have no time..." "It doesn''t matter!" Shi Shaoqin interrupted Jian Mo and said with a smile, "I''m not in a hurry to check in, so I can cooperate with your time." Jian Mo pondered slightly, "if there is no problem in time, I need to look at the location of your site and the design concept you need to answer whether you take the project or not." Shi Shaoqin said it was understandable, "I have plenty of time. When do you have time to go and have a look?" Jane Mo looked at the time. It was less than 10:30, "if you can, just now!" "OK..." asked Shi Shaoqin, "if you don''t mind, take my car? I''ll take you back later." Jane Mo nodded without affectation. After giving an explanation to Sun Ke, Jian Mo and Shi Shaoqin left Xiangyu. Gentleman Shi Shaoqin was considerate, opened the door for Jane Mo, waited for her to get on the car, and then got on the car around the other side However, from beginning to end, he has a seemingly unintentional intention no matter when he walks or speaks. "Drive!" Shi Shaoqin spoke faintly. Mosen answered, looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror and started the car Jane Mo looked at Mosen''s side face with some doubts and felt familiar. However, she couldn''t remember where she was familiar for a while? "What''s the matter?" Shi Shaoqin felt Jian Mo''s doubts and smiled lightly. Jane Mo was a little embarrassed. "I just think the driver is familiar... It seems that I''ve seen him somewhere?" "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin said softly and looked at Morson. "Have you met Miss Jane, Arsene?" Morson looked in the rearview mirror and calmly said, "boss, this Miss Jane is the one who hit the back of our car last time!" Shi Shaoqin was slightly shocked Jane Mo widened her eyes to see Mosen, and finally looked at Shi Shaoqin. "It''s you?" Jane Mo suddenly relaxed her tension. "I''m really sorry about the last time." Shi Shaoqin smiled, "it''s really fate..." "The fate of the crash?" Jane joked, "I didn''t thank you last time!" Shi Shaoqin slightly picked his eyebrows and said, "it''s not a big deal, as long as people are all right." If Jian Mo likes Shi Shaoqin because of his appearance and gentle and polite words, then she is completely relaxed about this person at the moment. Obviously, because of the "car crash" incident, Jian Mo subconsciously increased his favor for Shi Shaoqin. A piece of land bought by Shi Shaoqin is on the outskirts of the east city of Los Angeles, where there is a small crescent shaped lake. Jane Mo looked at this place. Compared with the secluded villa in the middle of the mountain, she suddenly found that she liked it very much. "What is Mr. Shao''s design direction?" Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin and asked. Shi Shaoqin replied with a smile, "one word, home!" Jane Mo didn''t expect that his request was so simple, but it was very difficult. "This is the place I gave to my lover," Shi Shaoqin said leisurely. "I chose you, first because someone introduced you, and second because you are a woman! From a female point of view, you are bold to design according to your ideas... I just want to embody one word, home!" "Are you going to ask Mr. Shao''s advice?" Jane Mo has some doubts. Shi Shaoqin smiled. "There''s no surprise." "If you don''t like it, the surprise may be greatly discounted!" Jane Mo said disapprovingly. "If it''s you, do you hope that under unknown circumstances, your lover will suddenly propose to you with a ''home''? Or do you want to ask you about the design of your house first?" Jane Mo thought seriously, then smiled, "I hope to propose first, and then study how the house is designed together." "I knew you would answer like that!" Shi Shaoqin''s smile deepened a lot. Jane Mo was stunned. She didn''t know why. At this moment, how did she feel that Shi Shaoqin wanted to give her the house? Sure enough, she''s been a little nervous lately "Just follow my order!" Shi Shaoqin was elegant from beginning to end. "Believe me, no one knows what my lover wants better than me? Just as your lover knows exactly what kind of romance you want!" The skillful words completely dispelled all Jian Mo''s concerns. Due to the "crash fate", there was no time conflict, so the order was made. "What kind of material do you want to use?" Asked Jane Mo on her way back. "Logs." Jane Mo was surprised in an instant. Shi Shaoqin then said, "lakes, logs, night lights... Don''t you think these are the most comfortable when they are added together?" Jane Mo''s heart trembled slightly, all because of excitement. It''s like you''ve been hiding something in your heart and don''t want to say it, but you urgently want to share it with others. After such repression, suddenly someone pierced your heart with his own preferences. Such excitement is speechless "It''s almost noon. How about having dinner together?" Shi Shaoqin asked, "I want to talk to you about some small details." Jian Mo had completely relaxed with Shi Shaoqin and nodded without affectation. The restaurant was arranged by Mosen in advance. It is a western restaurant with very good style. Even, the arrangement of location is very particular This arrangement is embodied in "Shall we go in?" The bodyguard woman who followed Jane Mo asked. The bodyguard man frowned slightly. "Shouldn''t you use it?" The bodyguard shrugged and thought it was true. "I''ll go down and buy some food..." the bodyguard man said after looking at the restaurant and got out of the car. The female bodyguard frowned slightly after the male bodyguard left... I don''t know why, why does she feel a little strange? Slightly tilted his head, and his sight fell on Shi Shaoqin''s back. He and Miss Jane were always in sight, but it seemed... From beginning to end, she didn''t have a chance to see him face to face except a little sideways? Such a coincidence is really a bit strange! The bodyguard didn''t think much. After all, they were sent to protect Jian mo... It''s not their category to whom she works or contacts privately. Otherwise, it is not protection, but surveillance. After a lunch, Jian Mo objectively liked Shi Shaoqin more and more. "I''ll take time to make a framework sketch recently..." Jane Mo said. "Then you''ll see if there''s anything that doesn''t accord with your idea." Shi Shaoqin nodded, then picked a gentle radian from the corner of his lips, "give me your mobile phone!" Chapter 385 "Ah?" Jane didn''t react for a moment. Shi Shaoqin smiled a little more and asked briskly, "how can you find me?" Jane was stunned, then reacted, and said with some embarrassment, "I forgot..." as she said, she took out her mobile phone from her bag and handed it to Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin took over and pressed the screen. What caught his eye was a picture with Gu Beichen''s picture as the background This picture was taken secretly at first sight. Gu Beichen stood in front of the French window in his home clothes. The sun poured down leisurely and lazily, plating a thin halo around him. A quarter of the side face, if you don''t pay attention to it, it''s hard to see at a glance that it''s Gu Beichen However, for Shi Shaoqin, he can see who it is at a glance... It doesn''t matter whether he is holding Jian Mo''s mobile phone or not. The drooping eyes covered the chill at the bottom of Shi Shaoqin''s eyes. His slender fingers crossed the screen and saved a group of numbers into Jian Mo''s mobile phone, signed "Shao Shi"! Then he dialed himself with Jian Mo''s mobile phone and broke when he heard the vibration of "buzzing". Jane Mo looked at the name on her mobile phone and put it away with a smile. "It''s almost time. I have to go back to work." Shi Shaoqin smiled softly, "I''ll take you back." "Please." After Shi Shaoqin recruited the waiter to check out, they went out of the restaurant one after another. After the car stopped at the gate of Lingyu international, Mosen said, "Miss Jane, here you are." Jane Mo nodded with a smile, "thank you for lunch!" She smiled politely at Shi Shaoqin and wanted to get off. "Miss Jane..." Jian Mo''s hand on the door stopped and looked back at Shi Shaoqin suspiciously. Shi Shaoqin said with a smile, "can you keep the things you designed for me confidential?" Jane Mo subconsciously frowned, as if puzzled. "In view of the recent attention paid to you in Los Angeles, I''m afraid the surprise hasn''t been given to my wife. It has been exposed!" Shi Shaoqin explained that there was a trace of teasing in the demon''s Phoenix eyes. As soon as Jane Mo heard it, she suddenly understood that she was unable to laugh or cry. "No problem..." Jane Mo answered, joking in her tone. "Even my lover, I won''t tell you!" Shi Shaoqin didn''t say anything, but his smile deepened. Jian Mo thought that such a man had better not laugh at women... It''s too tempting. She is a man whose husband is handsome enough to have no friends every minute. In the face of an evil man like Shao Shi, she can''t grasp it. After Jane Mo returned to the company, everyone was talking about something. "Sister Yu Xiaomo, as the chief designer of the park, hurried to come back with her," said Sister Yu Xiaomo "According to reliable information," Qiao Zirong came over, "because the theme park has invested more than one billion this time, the project will be divided into three to five areas... Not one." Jane Mo was not surprised, but asked, "which part does Yu always prefer?" "Area a!" Mo Xiaoya said with an eyebrow. Jian Mo smiled, "in line with president Yu''s character!" Area a is the largest one, which is also in line with Xiangyu''s current development direction "By the way, sister mo..." after finishing the business, Xiang night suddenly looked gossip. "Listen to sister Ke, have you gone on a date with a beautiful man? Tut Tut, are you going to abandon our president Gu?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows, frivolously hooked Xiang night''s chin and pulled the corners of her mouth, "only if Gu always has a sense of crisis, can he not go around all day!" After that, she flashed a touch of cunning on the bottom of her eyes, then put down her hand and smiled back to the office. "Some single Wang is always bad at learning..." Mu Xiaoran shook his head with a deep sigh on his face, "I have to find abuse!" Xiangwan hugged Mo Xiaoya''s arm and leaned against her shoulder to "cry". Mo Xiaoya also smiled, "be good, be good, turn around and take down the evil man and abuse your sister Mo in turn." "President Gu is so perfect that no man can surpass..." wailed to the night and continued to ask for comfort. However, while she was seeking comfort, Andy looked bitter. He felt that learning Chinese by himself was another strategic failure... Sometimes, only when he couldn''t understand it could he have hazy beauty. He was also relieved. He also went back to the office to cry for a while However, when passing by Jianmo''s office, Andy''s heart was almost congested with myocardial infarction when he looked at Jianmo''s figure. The days are busy and live day by day. As the most powerful media jumping every day, naturally, they will not be idle. They have to pick up all kinds of news and gossip. It seems that they are sorry for the expectations of the people if they don''t have high C at any time. In Xiangyu conference room, while waiting for the internal draft comparison meeting, we regularly gossip before the meeting. Jane Mo is still sketching the design drawing with a drawing pen in her hand. As usual, she has no participation mentality at all. Everyone has also been used to Jian Mo''s working state all the time, gossiping about his own until Yu Ziyun and Tang Haoyang came in. "Before the meeting, announce one thing first," Yu Ziyun looked at Jian Mo with an evil eyebrow, "the comparison results of Huaye came out." As soon as they heard this, they immediately held their breath. The last time emperor Jian Mo "lost", the result of this entertainment is particularly important. Jian Mo looked at Yu Ziyun calmly, not arrogant or impetuous, waiting for the result. In the evening, they all mentioned their voices one by one. After waiting for "half a day", they didn''t see Yu Ziyun speak. "Mr. Yu, what is the result?" Mu Xiaoran asked nervously. Tang Haoyang smiled, "look at president Yu''s expression, you know..." "Xiangyu got the architectural design right!" Yu Ziyun opened with a smile. Suddenly, there was a cheering call in the conference room. Jane Mo breathed out secretly. She said it easily, but she still had no bottom Shen Chu''s design is really good. In fact, she is not particularly confident to win her. Compared with the excitement of Xiangyu, it is obvious that the pressure of JK, who also got the news, is much lower. When Shen Chu got the result of Huayu comparison, a strange emotion gradually solidified on his face. "Oh, some people are arrogant all day, just like this..." Xie ran sneered. "Little three can''t be more formal..." someone immediately agreed, "it''s not just about controlling men!" Shen Chu secretly clenched his hand, endured it, pretended not to hear and went back to his office. As soon as I got in, my cell phone rang. Without looking at it, Shen Chu answered the phone, "hello?" The other end of the phone was silent, and then came a dark voice, "I''m not happy that I lost to Jane Mo?" Shen Chu put down his cell phone and looked at Chu Zixiao. He frowned slightly, "why, are you here to make fun of me?" "No," Chu Zixiao''s eyes narrowed slightly, "just want to see if you think Beichen is a hindrance... After all, Jian Mo is his wife, and Chen Xuan has a good relationship with him!" Chapter 386 Shen Chu''s heart was suddenly shocked. It was as if the things he had resisted to think were pierced by someone, and all of a sudden he couldn''t stop encroaching on all his nerves. "Why did you tell me this?" Shen Chu snorted coldly, with resistance in his tone. "I just saw the news..." Chu Zixiao said with no expression on his face. "After all, it''s the first big project you''ve picked up since you left for so many years. It''s a pity." Shen Chu clenched his teeth tightly and his breathing became heavy. She admitted that Jane Mo''s design was very good, but she didn''t believe she would lose. If Gu Beichen had made an exception for Jian Mo and asked her to change the design drawings under such circumstances, it would not be impossible to find Chen Xuan now in order to make Jian Mo find face in Huaye after the defeat of the emperor, wouldn''t it? Thinking of this, Shen Chu clenched his teeth tightly. The breath coagulated for a while, and Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, waiting for Shen Chu to digest. As time went by, I didn''t know how long it would take. Shen Chu clenched his hand and asked, "what''s good for Beichen if you tell me this?" Chu Zixiao narrowed his eyes slightly, "I just want to know whether you are willing or not... That''s all." willing? How can you be reconciled? Shen Chu''s face was cold. Originally it belonged to her, but now it''s all Jian Mo''s She tried hard to fight for it, but from childhood, she was mostly a pawn for her father''s rights. Now I think that what she really lives for herself is to go to UCL to study design... But now the only one, the only one, will be deprived by Jane Mo? Shen Chu didn''t say anything, but just hung up. Yes, she is unwilling! Shen Chu bit his teeth, his eyes filled with resentment. That kind of hatred seems to destroy everything ¡­¡­ After the meeting, Jane Mo dialed Gu Beichen. The mobile phone silently flashed the screen on the desk. Gu Beichen was holding a video conference. He looked down at Jian Mo and his eyes were deep. "Take a ten minute break!" Gu Beichen spoke indifferently and then cut off the video signal. Pick up the phone and pick it up. Listen to Jane Mo''s flattering voice, "I''ve got the design of Huaye!" "En......" Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a smile. Before Jian Mo knew the result, Chen Xuan had already told him. He didn''t tell Jane Mo, just hope she has the joy of expectation "Just ''en''?" Jane is dissatisfied. Gu Beichen''s cold face was soft, "otherwise?" Jane Mo snorted and said happily, "do you have anything to do at night?" Gu Beichen''s eyes fell on the itinerary. There was a dinner tonight, "no!" "Really?" Jane Mo doesn''t believe it. Gu Beichen seems to be very busy recently. He flies to other cities twice a week She knew that when Gu muhuai came back, it seemed that it was calm on the surface, but in fact, the emperor of God had been surging. "Yes." Gu Beichen just answered faintly. Jane Mo privately wanted to share her joy with Gu Beichen, so she didn''t think much, "see you at home in the evening..." "Good!" Gu Beichen''s eyes were already filled with a smile. "Then you''ll be busy first, and I''ll be busy too." "Good!" Gu Beichen answered and put down his cell phone after Jane Mo hung up. Press the inside line, Gu Beichen said calmly: "the dinner at night is cancelled." There was a silence on the phone, and then came Susan''s hesitant voice, "Chen Shao, it''s a dinner with several major banks in the evening. Do you really want to cancel it?" "Yes." Gu Beichen responded, and his indifferent face was completely arrogant and arrogant. Susan hesitated and answered with a heavy heart. After hanging up the phone, Susan looked distressed and totaled how to tell the people of several major banks According to the current situation of the emperor, several major banks must cooperate. However, who to cooperate with becomes a problem. Susan opened the phone record and was going to force her to explain. Before she dialed the phone, she saw Xiao Jing walking in while talking on the phone. "I understand..." Xiao Jing answered and hung up the phone. "Mrs. Shao called to ask if Chen Shao had anything to do in the evening." "And then?" Asked Susan. Xiao Jing shrugged, "I told the truth..." Susan''s eyes lit up when she was. Now there is no one but Jian Mo who can make Chen Shao abandon his work and have no integrity and lower limit. "Mrs. Shao said she would find reasons, so..." Xiao Jing looked at the phone book. "You don''t need to make these calls." When Jian Mo called Gu Beichen, it was an hour later, just as his video conference had just finished. "Husband..." Jane Mo shouted wearily. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and listened to Jian Mo''s tone. He knew something was wrong, "en?" "That..." Jane Mo grinned. "I might be a little late tonight." "Well?" Gu Beichen was light again. Jian Mo glanced. "Mr. Yu said that I finally got the big design when I came back. I''ll invite everyone to dinner at night... You know, they like to play at night, so I''m not good at pouring cold water." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is deep. "Or..." Jane Mo asked deliberately, "will you go with me?" "I won''t go." Gu Beichen spoiled and said, "call me when you''re finished and I''ll pick you up." "No," said Jane Mo hurriedly. "Otherwise, I still want you to pick it up. I don''t have a good time." Are you kidding? She''s not really going out. Gu Beichen''s thin lips scratched a faint smile and answered. Night comes when the lights are on. It''s already gloomy during the day, and it''s getting darker and darker at night. After Jane Mo went back to the villa and simply ate something, she explained to Aunt Luo. Don''t say she came back early. Aunt Luo has long been used to the "little tacit understanding" between Jian Mo and Gu Beichen, nodding with a smile. After cleaning up the table, Jane Mo was relieved to draw pictures. Aunt Luo and her servants all withdrew from the villa Jane Mo looked at the sketch of the villa with her left hand holding her cheek, and the corners of her mouth couldn''t help laughing. "I don''t know whether Shao Shixi likes this design or not..." Jane Mo said quietly. Although Shao Shi said she gave free play to the overall design, she liked both the environment and the design concept of logs. She involuntarily added her own preferences to the whole design. In such a place, it must be very warm and comfortable to sing birds and flowers in the morning and surround fireflies at night with people in love. Jane Mo took a deep breath. What she imagined in her mind was not Shaoshi and his lover. But myself and Gu Beichen Jane Mo pursed her mind and looked at the sketch again. There was no need to modify it, so she cleaned it up and put it in her handbag. Get up Suddenly, a dizzy feeling came. Jane Mo hurriedly supported the table, but for a moment, her face turned white and there was no blood color in the light. "Well..." Jane Mo''s voice was dull and painful. She subconsciously looked at the door with a touch of expectation in her eyes. However, before she had time to think about it, she only felt that her eyes were black and she still fell on the ground Chapter 387 The villa in the middle of the mountain is quiet at night, which makes people feel empty. The crystal glass lamp has bright light pouring down, which casts a shadow after being covered by objects. Jane Mo fell to the ground and fainted without any feeling. When I fell down, there was a bruise on my skin because my arm hit the corner of the table. Time, little by little. Jane Mo just fell on the ground and didn''t move. "Pa, PA..." Raindrops gently beat the clean glass window, making a crisp sound. At first, the interval was very long. Gradually, the sound became more and more dense Gu Beichen slightly deviated his sight and fell on the window. Looking at the rain, he fainted the light of the night lamp... He was inexplicably uneasy. Took out the mobile phone, the slender and powerful fingers quickly crossed the screen, and a text message was sent out. Jane Mo''s mobile phone flashed on the table, showing that a text message arrived... With such a light sound, it was submerged in the sound of raindrops hitting the window. For a long time, Gu Beichen didn''t know whether Jian Mo put his mobile phone in his bag and didn''t hear it. "Excuse me, everyone." Gu Beichen opened his mouth indifferently, then got up and walked out. The heads of the banks didn''t think much. They just thought that Gu Beichen went to the bathroom and laughed with meat jokes. Gu Beichen dialed Jian Mo''s phone while walking. When people came to the end of the corridor, the phone stopped ringing and no one answered. The uneasy feeling gradually rose. Gu Beichen didn''t know whether he was too nervous. After thinking about it, he dialed Jane Mo again The sweet piano music echoed in the huge villa, and there was a treacherous in the quiet. Jane Mo lay on the floor and there was no movement at all. If it wasn''t for the cell phone ringing, it would be like the whole world was silent with her. As no one answered the phone, Gu Beichen''s inexplicable uneasiness became stronger and stronger. Frowning, he changed his hand and dialed mu Xiaoran''s phone. "President Gu?" Mu Xiaoran just finished washing and was surprised to receive Gu Beichen''s call. The quiet speaking environment immediately made Gu Beichen coagulate his eyes, "didn''t you go out?" Mu Xiaoran was puzzled, but he still replied, "I''ll be back from work..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered and hung up without saying anything. It seems that Mo''er lied to him when he said that the people of the company were going to have activities together. He dialed the phone of the villa guard and heard that Jian Mo had gone back early. Gu Beichen was not at ease, but the uneasiness became more prosperous. After sending a text message to Xiao Jing, Gu Beichen turned around and went to the elevator. I drove all the way to the villa in the middle of the mountain. Under the rain, all my sight became blurred. The door of the villa is on, and Shen Chen looks at the door of the villa. Without an umbrella, Gu Beichen walked to the villa with great strides Now that Mo''er is back, she has no reason not to reply to him and wait for his phone to expose her white lie. At this time, she usually hasn''t slept yet. Recently, she is busy late every day for government projects. With a bang, the door was pushed open. Gu Beichen''s sight fell in the direction of the table no one! With a slight frown, Gu Beichen took back his sight, raised his head and looked in the direction of the bedroom. He thought that Jian Mo went to bed early today He was about to go upstairs. When he was too nervous, Gu Beichen suddenly stopped because of the angle of Yu Guang. Looking sideways, I saw Jane Mo lying on the ground without any movement. Gu beichenjun''s face was instantly shocked, and even the consciousness controlled brain strode to the past "Mo''er?" Gu Beichen squatted down and held Jian Mo in his arms, "Mo''er?" Jane Mo didn''t move at all. Her body was soft and her face was a little pale. Gu Beichen''s cold face was shocked. He didn''t have time to think about it. He took off his suit and coat, covered Jian Mo, picked her up and went out The car quickly slid out of the villa. At the same time, the phone dialed out Li Yunze stared at the microscope and looked serious. Looking at the information from the smear, Li Yunze frowned gradually. If silence is really the same as the results, and he doesn''t think too much, then... He has determined that this drug is not a poison. But a benchmark drug, with different adjuvants, the fission will be different If so, silence would be terrible! Li Yunze looked a little dignified. Apart from Shi Shaoqin, he really couldn''t think of anyone who could make such abnormal drugs? The ''buzzing'' of the mobile phone vibrated on one side. After ringing for a long time, Li Yunze restrained his thoughts, took it and picked it up, "Beichen?" "Where is it?" A cold voice came solemnly. Li Yunze was subconsciously nervous, "in the hospital." "Jian Mo fainted..." Gu Beichen said in a voice, "I''m going to the hospital." "Good!" As soon as Li Yunze listened, he got up with his mobile phone and walked outside the laboratory. When Li Yunze arrived at the clinic, Gu Beichen also came in with Jian Mo in his arms No fake hands, Li Yunze personally checked Jian mo. Gu Beichen screwed his eyebrows all the way, and the ink pupil was gray "On the surface, everything is normal. I need to test all the data before I can know what''s wrong." Li Yunze knew Gu Beichen was worried and tried to say it calmly. Gu Beichen frowned and nodded. Li Yunze took the vessel, drew blood for Jian Mo and called the nurse on duty to send it for test. The time of waiting for the result is always particularly difficult. Gu Beichen sat in the chair with a frozen look and waited. Li Yunze made coffee and handed Gu Beichen a cup. "How did Jane Mo suddenly faint?" Gu Beichen shook his head with self reproach at the bottom of his eyes and didn''t speak. Li Yunze didn''t ask again. He grew up together and had a tacit understanding with each other. "Well..." Suddenly, a faint, almost inaudible sound came. Gu Beichen suddenly got up and strode to the hospital bed, "Mo''er?" Jane Mo only felt that her eyelids were heavy. She wanted to open them, but she couldn''t open them. Li Yunze put down the coffee cup, came forward, took the stethoscope and began to check Except that the heart rate is a little messy, everything is still relatively normal. Jian Mo frowned and listened to Gu Beichen''s worried voice, as if in a dream. Her eyelashes trembled, trying to open her eyes "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen''s cold face was tight. Jane Mo made a sad "hum" in her throat and frowned for a while before slowly opening her eyes "Li Shao," timely, the nurse who came with the test results entered the examination room, "the test results come out!" Chapter 388 "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo''s blurred vision gradually became clear, and looked at Gu Beichen with a slight frown. She didn''t know what had happened. Gu Beichen sat by the hospital bed, half lifted Jian Mo up, took her in his arms, and stroked Jian Mo''s arm with his big palm, trying to calm her down. Li Yunze looked at the test results and frowned, "anemia is so severe..." He said, looking at Jane Mo, a little surprised. Gu Beichen twisted his eyebrows in an instant, "why did he faint?" Jian Mo''s consciousness has gradually recovered. He pricked the corners of his mouth and said, "I... I suddenly got up and fainted... And then... I don''t know..." Jian Mo said finally that her voice was the same as that of mosquitoes humming. Li Yunze frowned. He always felt something wrong. However, from the test results and Jian Mo symptoms, it was indeed caused by anemia. "Stay in hospital and observe all night?" Li Yunze pondered and opened his mouth. "No need?" Jane Mo blinked her eyes, "I don''t feel it at the moment..." before she finished, she received Gu Beichen''s sharp eyes, and suddenly her voice wilted, "well, just stay for one night!" Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen and nodded slightly. He saw that Gu Beichen picked up Jian Mo and went to the VIP ward. Li Yunze kindly asked the nurse to prepare some night snacks to replenish blood. Jian Mo looked at Li Yunze with some embarrassment and felt that he had friends like Gu Beichen, which was also enough. "I still have some things to deal with in the laboratory," Li Yunze said with a smile, looking at Jian Mo, who was oppressed by Gu Beichen''s fierce eyes. "How do you two solve it? Help yourself." Then he looked at Gu Beichen. Just at a glance, it conveys a lot of information. "A little, don''t collapse my hospital bed!" Li Yunze said with deep meaning. With ambiguous eyes, he saw that Jian Mo''s face had been flushed and left in a good mood. In the ward, only Jane Mo and Gu Beichen were left. The atmosphere gradually became condensed because neither of them spoke. "Not going to explain?" Gu Beichen asked in a low voice. "Explain what?" Jane decided to play dumb. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and his voice was a little dark. "Didn''t you say there was a dinner in the company at night?" The pressure of breaking people''s hearts came from the light voice, squeezing Jian Mo''s heart. Jane Mo fans her eyes pitifully and looks like ''I''m a patient, you still treat me like this''. Gu Beichen knew that Jian Mo was pretending at the moment, but he couldn''t say a word of blame. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen sighed, "you don''t want to delay my business, I know. But don''t lie to me next time, I''ll worry!" Jane Mo lowered her eyes, pursed her lips and said, "ah Chen, I don''t want me to be your burden..." as she said, she raised her eyes in a dignified mood and looked up at Beichen''s eyes. "I''m not a person who will make trouble without reason or who can''t understand you... I know you don''t want me to lose, but I don''t want you to give up my principles." Gu Beichen deeply coagulated Jian mo. at last, he didn''t say anything, but just explored with his long arm and took Jian Mo into his arms Jane morhuan went up Gu Beichen''s waist, put her cheek on his chest, listened to his heartbeat and said, "in the future, I will not be picky about food, eat as much as possible every day, and don''t let myself be like this again." Gu Beichen tightened his arm around Jian mo. "Ah Chen, what''s the problem? I want to face it with you. I don''t want you to take care of my mood while facing it..." Jian Mo said, and the more dignified the mood is. The kidnapping was like a mountain pressing Jane Mo''s nerves. She wanted to push it away, but she couldn''t. All ah Chen does now is to pay for the kidnapping. She just loves him! Gu Beichen felt the low pressure of Jian Mo, sighed secretly, lifted his thin lips, and said slowly: "for the first time, I haven''t learned how to do so deeply, which is really good for you..." Jane Mo bit her lower lip and folded Gu Beichen''s hands. "Mo''er, in the exploratory stage, I just hope to give you the best..." Gu Beichen sighed, and the ink pupil gradually became deeper. "As long as you love me, we can be together..." Jane Mo''s mouth was filled with a smile. "That''s the best!" They have a tacit understanding with each other. While Jian Mo''s words fall, they fall back slightly at the same time The four eyes are opposite. For a moment, it seems that they want to see each other into the deepest part of their souls. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze put the smear coated with Jianmo blood into the machine. After pressing the start button, he put another smear under a high-power microscope I don''t know if it''s because he just studied silence. He''s worried that Jane Mo has this thing in her body. The machine made a faint running sound, and Li Yunze observed the changes of blood smears under the microscope The raindrops hit the window and made a crisp sound of "Ding Ding Dong". Gradually, it disrupted people''s thinking form and became its rhythm. The sound of "Di" came and the machine stopped running. Li Yunze didn''t move, but continued to look at the microscope. After about ten more minutes, he frowned and got up, pressed the print button and printed the machine test results. There are no special abnormalities in the data, including just looking at the blood smear and no special findings Is he thinking too much? Li Yunze left the corners of his mouth and relaxed his breath It''s best to think too much! The results were crushed in a paper shredder, and Li Yunze left the laboratory after cleaning up the blood sample smears of Jian mo. Rain, pattering, the next non-stop. Rain can''t stop nightlife people from seeking stimulation or sinking. Chu Zixiao found a bottle of red wine from the blues cellar. Shen Chu stood in front of the window and looked at the rain outside. His face was a little sentimental. Hearing footsteps coming from behind, Shen Chu turned slowly and looked at Chu Zixiao, "I just want to know what''s the purpose of stimulating me?" Shen Chu is not a fool. He knows more about the relationship between Chu Zixiao and Gu Beichen They are nephews in generations, but because of the small difference in age, they are more like brothers. Chu Zixiao took two goblets and calmly opened the red wine and poured two cups. "Your purpose is in Beichen," the cold and emotionless figure overflowed Chu Zixiao''s lips, "my purpose is..." he raised his eyes and looked at Shen Chu, "... Jian Mo!" Shen Chu was obviously surprised, "Jian Mo?" It seems that some are not in the state, and Shen Chu can''t react for a long time. "Do you like Jane Mo?" Finally, Shen Chu asked in surprise. Chu Zixiao didn''t speak. He just picked up the wine glass, folded his legs and leaned against the sofa at will, with deep eyes, "love but not... You should know the taste like this?" Chapter 389 Shen Chu looked at Chu Zixiao quietly. Even though she didn''t contact Gu Beichen and Mo Shaochen, she still knew this person. He is conceited on weekdays because he has this ability. Gu Beichen has a pointed worship. All his efforts are just to get closer to his little uncle. But now, for a simple Mo, is this a hostile rhythm? Shen Chu frowned slightly, some of whom couldn''t understand Such incomprehension stems from her incomprehension. What''s good about Jane Mo? Jealousy is buried in Shen Chu''s heart like a seed. Even though she has been deliberately avoiding it, this time, there is nowhere to avoid. Slowly clenched his hand and released it. Shen Chu leaned over, picked up the red wine glass, looked up, and poured all the wine in the glass into his mouth. The mellow liquor passed through the taste buds with astringent taste. Shen Chu held his lips tightly and took a deep breath, "tell me, what''s your purpose today?" We are all smart people. There is no need to beat around the bush. "Cooperation..." Chu Zixiao''s eyes gradually deepened and calmly opened his mouth slowly. "Who can get who is their ability at last, and cooperate during the period!" Shen Chu looked at Chu Zixiao. Gradually, his face was ferocious because of jealousy. She took a deep breath, then clenched her teeth and said, "OK!" It rained at night, and the world was shrouded in haze. Jian Mo has fallen asleep under the appeasement of Gu Beichen. Looking at her slightly frowned eyebrows, Gu Beichen raised his hand and gently stroked Jian Mo''s eyebrows with thick fingers... He didn''t release his hand until her body completely relaxed in her sleep. Carefully cover Jane Mo''s quilt. Gu Beichen attached himself to her and kissed her on the forehead. Then he got up and slowed down and went out of the ward. Li Yunze leaned against the wall with his arms around his chest, and the soft light fell on him, showing the arrogance under the evil charm. Hearing something, Li Yunze looked back and saw Gu Beichen coming out, and the man also stood up. "Asleep?" Gu Beichen nodded slightly, "what''s the result?" "No big deal..." Li Yunze shook his head. "There are many causes of occupational diseases, which are relatively normal, and special ones are not noticed." Gu beichenjun had some haze on his face, and the feeling was unspeakably dignified. Li Yunze knew what Gu Beichen was worried about. "From a medical point of view, the complexity of people''s body structure often masks the truth of whether they are healthy or not..." he sighed, "it''s best to ask Jian Mo to come here every other month to check." Now is an extraordinary period. Boss long is also worried that Shi Shaoqin will use the "civil strife" of the Mo palace as a cover to achieve some of his goals. Although the Mo palace has regulations, no matter how, as long as you can escape from the Mo palace in three months, you won''t embarrass that person again. But Shi Shaoqin is abnormal Who knows if he will go back on his word? Anyway, he set the time for three months... It''s normal to ruin yourself. Beichen''s weakness is too obvious now. It''s easy to destroy him... Just control Jianmo. After appeasing Gu Beichen, Li Yunze went to the office to make up for his sleep. There is another operation to be done tomorrow morning. He is not responsible for the patient''s suffering here. After Gu Beichen heard that Jian Mo was ok, he went back to the ward. Sitting on the sofa, he sent a text message to Xiao Jing and asked about the situation. Xiao Jing is an exquisite man with all sides. At the beginning, the Dragon owl gave him to Gu Beichen from all aspects Especially in business, among the five Xiao people, they are definitely the most outstanding. Xiao Jing: everything is done. Everyone is in heaven night. Gu Beichen just replied "yes", then received his mobile phone and looked at Jian Mo''s sleeping face. It drizzled all night, but it became smaller slowly when the morning came. It''s rare for Jane Mo to wake up early in the morning without the "difficult household to get up". Her strange destination makes her thoughts stagnate. She looked around, and the white pink ward gradually attracted her memory. Eyes fell on the sofa Gu Beichen closed his eyes, and his cold, carved face was dignified under tension. A heartache crossed Jane Mo''s eyes. She gently got up, lifted the quilt and got out of bed. She was already very light, but Gu Beichen opened his eyes for the first time. Mo Tong quietly looked at Jane''s lips for a few seconds, and Gu Beichen got up, "why did you wake up so early today?" "Because it''s not at home, nor in your arms..." Jane Mo said in a voice. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and he got up. "Is there anything uncomfortable?" Jane Mo shook her head, "there was no last night..." "Let Yunze check it for you again. It''s all right. I''ll take you back to change your clothes and send it to the company?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo had some resistance, but she didn''t nod her head. She secretly blamed herself for her poor health recently and asked Gu Beichen to take time to worry about her. Li Yunze was shouted by Gu Beichen. He was dissatisfied... But he checked Jian Mo very seriously. After confirming that Jane Mo is all right for the time being, Gu Beichen takes her away Looking at the back of the two people entering the elevator, Li Yunze breathed a long sigh of relief, but his heart was as heavy as the weather outside. Shi Shaoqin stood on the terrace, the drizzle gently fell on him, hazy, showing the feeling of leaving the world alone. The narrow Phoenix eyes narrowed slightly, looking at the hazy scenery shrouded by water mist in the distance, and gradually... His sight became dark. The "buzzing" vibration of the mobile phone came. Shi Shaoqin didn''t move. Mosen took the mobile phone and sent it to him. Drooping his eyes, he saw that it was Jian Mo''s, and Shi Shaoqin picked it up indifferently. "Mr. Shao," said Jian Mo in a brisk voice, "the sketch has come out. You can come and have a look when you have time." "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, "so fast?" Jian Mo smiled, "the next time is a little uncertain. I want to get out the sketch of the villa first... If it is improved in the later stage, the time can be picked." "It''s raining today..." Shi Shaoqin said slowly. Jane froze slightly, and subconsciously answered, "en!" "Do you have time to see that place again?" Shi Shaoqin asked with a smile, "in this weather, maybe... You will burst out more inspiration. At the same time, I can also give some of my own ideas on your first draft." Jane Mo smiled, with obvious excitement in her eyes, "OK..." "Shall I pick you up or shall I wait for you over there?" Asked Shi Shaoqin, a gentleman. "I''ll be fine myself..." Jian Mo obviously couldn''t wait. "There''s no accident. I''ll be there in about an hour!" "Good!" Shi Shaoqin answered and hung up. At the moment when he dropped his hand, the smile on his handsome face converged... Gradually, it was replaced by a touch of gloom. Chapter 390 Jian Mo put the sketch into the rainproof bucket, took the bag and wanted to go out "Ah Ke, I made an appointment with the customer to see the scene." Jane Mo explained to Sun Ke as she walked. "There will be a meeting in the afternoon. Can you come back?" Jian Mo pressed the down button of the elevator, smiled and said, "I''ll be back before noon..." "Sister Mo, you go out?" Mu Xiaoran came over with the drawing. "It''s still raining outside. Have you brought an umbrella?" Jane Mo was stunned and shook her head in a daze. "I''ll get it for you!" Mu Xiaoran put the drawing on Sun Ke''s desk. The man turned and went to get the umbrella. Sun Ke looked at mu Xiaoran''s hurried back and said, "Mo Mo, do you think... Xiaoran is too enthusiastic for you?" She looked back at Jian Mo, "compared with the original evening, it is obvious that this is the posture that the design assistant should have." Jane Mo nodded very approvingly, "if I didn''t find a heart plug for me at that time, I would thank her..." The words fell, and they couldn''t help smiling at each other. The sound of arrival came from the elevator, and mu Xiaoran rushed over in a hurry "Sister Mo!" "Thank you, baby!" Jane Mo took the umbrella with a smile and turned into the elevator. Mu Xiaoran''s face was filled with a happy smile. It felt like Jane Mo was very lucky for her to use her umbrella. "Xiaoran, are you too kind to your sister Mo?" Sun Ke asked deliberately. Mu Xiaoran fanned his eyelashes and asked strangely, "sister Mo is so nice. Shouldn''t I be better to her?" "..." Sun Ke was stunned, then twitched the corners of his mouth and said, "your explanation won..." Jane Mo pressed the button of the underground parking lot. When the sound of "Ding" came, she lifted her feet and went out after the elevator door opened I turned around and didn''t find my car. Jane Mo was frozen in place, looked left and right, and then hung her eyes in meditation. After a full minute, Jian Mo suddenly remembered... She drove home last night, but Gu Beichen sent her this morning! Holding her forehead, Jane Mo couldn''t stand her look. When she skimmed back to the elevator, Jane Mo had to take a taxi. By the time he reached the outskirts of the east city, Shi Shaoqin had arrived. Jian Mo looked at the car glass stained with raindrops from a distance Mosen held a big black umbrella, and Shi Shaoqin stood under the umbrella with his hands in his pockets. As far as he could see, he could only vaguely see the perfect outline of his side face. Such a man stood on the edge of the crescent lake, and the drizzle fell obliquely around him. The whole body of the dust-free was emitting a mysterious smell. After paying the fare, Jane Mo opened the door, opened her umbrella, got out of the car, and walked along the sheep''s intestines path "Qin Shao," Mosen looked at Jian Mo coming over, "Jian Mo has arrived." Shi Shaoqin turned slowly From the angle of his umbrella, Mosen hid the possibility of seeing their faces from a distance. "Sorry, I had an accident. I''m late... Ah..." Jian Mo hurriedly explained that she didn''t look under her feet. Suddenly, her feet emptied into a small puddle, and her whole body suddenly fell towards the other side Shi Shaoqin stepped forward with a quick arrow. Seeing that it was too late, he quickly grabbed Jian Mo''s shaking wrist and suddenly made a force to bring back her falling body. But because of this, Shi Shaoqin''s body was somewhat unstable under the influence of inertia. He simply grabbed Jian Mo''s slender waist with his other hand. After two rounds of walking with her, he stood firm Everything is slow to say, but it happens in an instant. The raindrops beat on the umbrella and made a crisp sound of "crackling". Jian Mo''s umbrella fell to the ground. The bright color of the rainbow umbrella captured people''s attention in the green environment. Mosen''s body has been drenched in the rain, and his umbrella hit Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo''s head The four eyes were opposite. At that moment, Jane Mo forgot her reaction. I was stunned, but also because of Shi Shaoqin''s elegant and profound vision Shi Shaoqin didn''t move. His hand around Jane Mo''s waist passed the temperature on her. Gradually, his eyes became deep Jian Mo swallowed it secretly. Like an electric shock, she hurriedly pushed Shi Shaoqin away, with embarrassment on her face. "That..." Jian Mo''s embarrassed face turned red. She looked at Shi Shaoqin and looked embarrassed. Shi Shaoqin motioned slightly, and Mosen hit Jian Mo with his umbrella. Drooping eyes, looking at Jane Mo''s shoes are dirty Shi Shaoqin took out his handkerchief and, surprised by Jian Mo, squatted down and wiped her shoes. "It doesn''t matter..." Jane Mo hurriedly shrinks her feet, blushes more, and grins secretly. Why is she so ashamed. Shi Shaoqin sighed softly, but did not force, "just saw you take a taxi?" "I came here and forgot that I didn''t drive in the morning..." Jane Mo said with some embarrassment. Jane Mo''s embarrassment just dissipated a lot because of this answer. Seeing Shi Shaoqin''s thin smile on his mouth, she suddenly understood that the man was shifting her thoughts and making her less embarrassed. Jane Mo looked at Mosen and saw that his shoulders were slightly wet. She hurried to pick up her umbrella. "Let Arsene use yours..." Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth faintly, and his voice was calm and soft. People couldn''t bear to refuse, "it''s more convenient for me to fight with you." With that, Shi Shaoqin had taken the umbrella in Mosen''s hand. Morson turned and picked up the rainbow umbrella on the ground. When it hit her head, Jane Mo felt a sense of disobedience Imagine a tall man with a face like Botox, holding a colorful rainbow umbrella... The picture is so beautiful that she doesn''t dare to see it! Jane Mo took out the drawing. When she entered the working state, she was serious and embarrassed just now. It was like a changed person. Drizzle, log house, crescent lake, grassland Such a scene makes Jane Mo yearn and happy. When talking about her own design, she is even more elated. Shi Shaoqin listens quietly, occasionally puts forward his own views, or leads Jian Mo to her own ideas without trace... It has completely become the hope of Jian mo. Jian Mo didn''t care, but while recording Shi Shaoqin''s ideas, she modified the deficiencies in the sketch under such an artistic conception. When everything was done, it was another hour later. "I''m looking forward to the finished product..." Shi Shaoqin said with a smile. "I believe my lover will like it very much." "Your lover must be very happy..." Jane Mo said sincerely. Such a perfect man is willing to rack his brains for her. It''s not easy to be unhappy, is it? "And you?" Shi Shaoqin suddenly asked. "Well?" Jane Mo didn''t react for a moment. Shi Shaoqin looked slightly deep. "Are you happy?" Chapter 391 Jane Mo''s mouth was filled with a smile. That smile began to spread across her cheeks from the corner of her mouth, and gradually fainted in the fundus of her eyes... Finally, it turned into a beautiful expectation. "Very happy..." Jian Mo''s voice was a little far-reaching. "That kind of happiness has nothing to do with his identity and status... Just because he is mine!" Shi Shaoqin looked at the intoxicated love on Jian Mo''s face. Feng''s eyes suddenly sank. A trace of happiness wanted to crush her at the moment But the emotion was only fleeting. Jian Mo didn''t see the instant change of Shi Shaoqin. She just restrained her addicted eyes and said with some embarrassment: "it''s not easy to meet someone who will accompany you to your old age in life, so we should know and cherish each other." Shi Shaoqin smiled and didn''t comment too much. "Let''s go?" Shi Shaoqin said, "I''ll take you back." "That''s all I can do..." Jian Mo shrugged and looked at the open road and teased herself. "It''s estimated that I can''t get a taxi here until tomorrow." Shi Shaoqin smiled deeply and walked to the car with Jian Mo under his umbrella Morson took the lead, opened the door and waited. The sight fell on the two people who came over and didn''t know what to talk about. Mohsen''s indifferent eyes went deep. When was Qin Shao so obsessed with dealing with a person? Never He has no patience! Often tired, it will be destroyed directly. But this time Morson''s thoughts were interrupted by the two people in front of the car. After they got on the car, he closed the door and went to the driver''s seat. The car left the outskirts of the east city and drove to the city. Shi Shaoqin is a "gentleman" man. Along the way, the topic will not be too deep, but it will not be too shallow to chat with Jian Mo, so as not to embarrass the atmosphere in the car. Jane Mo is very happy to chat. She is not a person who is keen on chatting. However, with Shi Shaoqin, it seems that there are many topics The most important thing is that the two people have the same views on many things. In addition, the content of the chat doesn''t know why. They are all of her interest. "Stop!" Suddenly, Shi Shaoqin spoke. Jian Mo looked around in a daze and then looked at Shi Shaoqin. Mosen stopped by the side of the road and heard Shi Shaoqin say, "wait for me." Jane nodded to show that it was all right. Shi Shaoqin didn''t let Mosen get off, but just got off, held an umbrella, and then went into a store. Jane Mo looked sideways. It was the flagship store of a brand. She had heard of it. It was all high-end luxury goods. Without much thought, Jian Mo thought it was Shi Shaoqin who wanted to buy something for his lover. She couldn''t help but increase her favor for this man Jane Mo suddenly had a thought in her mind, took out her mobile phone and sent a text message to Gu Beichen: husband, it seems that we didn''t go shopping together? Gu Beichen replied quickly: I''ve been shopping. Jane: when? Why don''t I remember? Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep, and one side of his thin lip was scratched with a faint smile: in city a, private market! "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and suddenly remembered the events of that year. Heart, suddenly touched. In that case, Gu Beichen agreed to change her design and the three stepped meals Maybe Gu Beichen is not as considerate as Shao Shi. However, he can always touch the deepest part of her heart on minor things... That''s why she still fell in the enemy in those two years when she knew it was a contractual marriage. The sound of opening the door interrupted Jane Mo''s thoughts. She quickly sent Gu Beichen a ''kiss'' expression and received her mobile phone. Shi Shaoqin got on the bus and took out the shoebox in his handbag. "I don''t know if you like it or not..." Jane was slightly flustered, with a question mark on her face. Shi Shaoqin opened the shoebox and took out a pair of seven point high silver heels. "Do you mind if I change your shoes?" Jane Mo wanted to refuse, but when Shi Shaoqin''s evil Phoenix eyes deeply coagulated her, she forgot to respond. It was as if the sight and a deep pool absorbed her Gently move, pick up her feet, take a handkerchief and wipe the residual soil from Jane Mo''s feet... Gently change her new shoes. Jane Mo''s heart suddenly ''cluttered'', and she quickly retracted at the moment when her shoes were put on. What happened to her just now? How do you feel stunned It''s like the brain is not controlled by her subjective consciousness and can only let Shaoshi change her shoes. Jane Mo was slightly embarrassed. Sure enough, too beautiful things will make people confused and addicted. Looking at the shoes on her feet, they are the right size, even with her clothes today "Mr. Shao..." Jian Mo was embarrassed and wanted to refuse, but the shoes were already on his feet. It seemed that it was too hypocritical to refuse at this moment. Shi Shaoqin smiled. "If I didn''t ask you to go there to talk about design, you wouldn''t have a chance to fall, would you?" Jane Mo could not refute. "If you feel embarrassed," Shi Shaoqin''s smile deepened a little, "then help me keep it a secret and pay more attention to this design... En?" After hearing this, Jane Mo smiled. Although she was helpless, she could only accept it gladly. "How do you know what shoe size I wear?" Jane Mo asked suspiciously. "When I was wiping your shoes, I accidentally saw the shoe size on the soles of your feet..." Shi Shaoqin said. After listening to this, Jian Mo had no doubt, but his liking for Shi Shaoqin''s gentlemanly demeanor increased again. Because of this, when one day she knew Shi Shaoqin''s real identity, she felt like falling into an ice cave at that moment. Shi Shaoqin is not a gentleman, nor is he observing Xiaomo... Nor does he have the same interest as her at all. I just thought... This man knows all her information. Maybe, she knows better than herself! Gu Beichen stood in front of the office window. The winding rain blurred the glass. The sight is due to the hazy weather. "Dong Dong!" The knock came, Gu Beichen answered, and Susan came in. "Chen Shao, the old lady''s birthday banquet has been fully implemented..." Susan said. Gu Beichen turned slowly and nodded. "Besides," Susan paused and said, "young master, do you want to arrange it?" "No," Gu Beichen said faintly, "Xiaojie is not suitable for exposure now." "OK!" Susan answered, "I''ll go out first if it''s all right." "Yes." After Gu Beichen answered, he turned around and took his suit and coat. As he walked out, he was wearing it. "Chen Shao, where are you going?" Xiao Jing asked. ¡°Spencer£¡¡± Xiao Jing said "Oh" and entered the elevator with Gu Beichen. Spencer looked much more serene in the drizzle. In the pavilion in the school garden, grandma Gu watched Jane Jie eat the cakes she made herself. She was very happy Gu Beichen copied his pocket with one hand and held an umbrella with the other. He looked at the old and young, cold and carved face, and suddenly solidified Chapter 392 Gu Beichen looked at it from a distance and didn''t bother the grandparents and grandchildren who had spanned four generations. "Is it delicious?" Grandma Gu looked at Jane Jie and asked. Recently, she came to school occasionally, just saying that she was the grandmother of a teacher. Because of the fate of "tears are precious gifts" last time, she liked little guys very much I don''t know if the little guy has been cheated, but Grandma Gu can only say so. "Well, delicious." Jian Jie smiled softly, "because there is too much grandma''s love!" Grandma Gu was suddenly stunned, "what do you call me?" Jian Jie said with a smile, "too grandma..." his black pupils fanned brightly. "You are the teacher''s grandmother. According to the seniority, I should call you too grandma!" Grandma Gu''s mood at the moment is unspeakable. The excitement made her eyes red. Aunt LAN on one side also has a sour nose, and her eyes looking at Jane Jie are more loving. The old lady was afraid that she could not wait for master Jie''s "too grandma". No matter what happened today, it was a wish of the old lady. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gradually deepened, and he turned slowly with some astringency in his heart There was a faint, almost invisible guilt across the cold face... It became a haze under the drizzle. Grandma Gu''s birthday banquet arrived as scheduled Los Angeles media had already begun to wait outside gujia manor where the birthday banquet was held. All the attention of the media today also fell here. Because grandma Gu is an old revolutionary thought, even if she married grandpa Gu, who was in charge of the imperial group and had a legendary color at that time, she never thought of extravagance and waste. On her 80th birthday, it happened that Grandpa Gu had been away for less than three years. Grandma Gu didn''t even have a meal for her family. This time, people from all walks of life talked about what to do. What can be said most is... Gu muhuai has been silent for six years and comes back to compete with Gu Beichen for the emperor. Mrs. Gu will show who she supports today. Entertainment, finance, Los Angeles official television and surrounding media have arrived. Tonight''s birthday party is bound to be starry. Even if you can''t find the real valuable news of your family, all the people who come here can occupy the headlines of all the media. Gujia manor. A total of five professional beauticians and designers revolve around Jane mo. Jane Mo is a little nervous, never nervous Although it is said that everyone knows the relationship between her and Gu Beichen, this evening can be said to be her first appearance with Gu Beichen on a formal occasion. Or grandma Gu''s birthday party Jian Mo looked in the mirror, sat on the sofa, calmly turned over the financial magazine, with a look of resentment Men are good. A suit can be done on any occasion! Jane Mo breathed a sigh of relief, trying to calm herself down. "Miss Jane, relax..." Jane Mo looked at the hairdresser who was taking care of her hair, and pulled the corners of her mouth with some embarrassment. Gu Beichen lifted his eyes, and the eagle looked at Jian Mo deeply. "Do you want to have a rest first?" Jane Mo quickly nodded her head. Gu Beichen personally poured water for Jian Mo, and the thin lip was filled with a faint smile of evil charm, "nervous?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen with a comforting face and nodded. Gu Beichen slightly attached himself and gently kissed Jian Mo on his forehead. "I''m around, aren''t I?" Jane Mo relaxed a little. Her tension came from the first time. But think about it, after so many times for the first time... It seems that I''m not so nervous. In other words, her tension does not come from herself Instead, today in gujia manor. CEN Lanxi and Gu Moyuan have been back for such a long time. In addition to the first meeting and the unhappiness of that time, there is grandma Gu''s villa... Today is the fourth time to meet each other She doesn''t want to embarrass ah Chen on such an occasion. If Cen Lanxi embarrasses her, it doesn''t matter if she becomes a laughing stock in Los Angeles, but if ah Chen quarrels with his mother for her... It''s always bad. Although Gu Beichen won''t quarrel at all now, he will only kill it with a cold look. Gu Beichen didn''t know Jian Mo''s concerns. He squatted down and looked at Jian Mo almost flat and said, "don''t feel at ease with grandma?" Jane Mo blinked her eyelashes and blushed slightly when Gu Beichen saw through her mind. "I''m not worried..." Jane Mo muttered with a hard mouth. "What are you worried about?" Gu Beichen answered. Jane Mo didn''t think about it, so she hurriedly said, "don''t worry that your mother will embarrass me..." Jian Mo''s words were suddenly stunned at the end. He was drunk for not telling himself so. "Well, I know..." Gu Beichen''s thin lips hooked a faint arc, "don''t you worry." "..." Jane Mo was very depressed. She felt so stupid that she really couldn''t play happily. Jane Mo was worried here. In the row house in front of the manor, grandma Gu took the tea handed over by Cen Lanxi and drank it. "Mom, do you have something to say to me?" CEN Lanxi sat down. Grandma Gu calmly put down the cup, "Lanxi, you have been taking care of your family for years. I know what you have paid for taking care of your family." CEN Lanxi sighed. "Mo yuan is unhappy. If it weren''t for you, I''m afraid many times... The family has gone astray." Grandma Gu looked at Cen Lanxi, "I don''t say, it doesn''t mean I don''t know your contribution to the Gu family." "Mom, these are what I should do..." Cen Lanxi said. "Credit is credit!" Grandma Gu''s voice was calm from beginning to end, "but we can''t cover up some things because of credit." CEN Lanxi looked puzzled at grandma Gu, "Mom, what do you mean..." "I don''t mean anything." Grandma Gu sighed, "at my age, every day is a day... I don''t want anything unpleasant to happen today." CEN Lanxi was not a fool. She immediately understood what grandma Gu meant. "I agree with Beicheng and Jianmo. Even if you don''t agree, you have to wait for me to go..." "Mom, it''s a great day today. Why do you say such unlucky words?" CEN Lanxi''s voice was a little dignified. It doesn''t matter when grandma Gu arrives. "People, learn to accept the reality..." she puns, "if you''re really unhappy living in Los Angeles, you can leave with Mo yuan later. I see that Beichen is doing well without you." Speaking of Cen Lanxi''s pain, she vented slightly. Grandma Gu said without any mercy: "no matter what today, if you can bear it, you can''t help it... You''ll go back to the house early." "Mom..." Cen Lanxi didn''t hold back, "what''s good about Jane Mo? You protect her like this?" Chapter 393 "She is what Beichen wants..." grandma Gu said with staring eyes, "just like at the beginning, I don''t agree with you to enter the Gu family, but you are what Moyuan wants!" CEN Lanxi choked at what he had said in his throat and was completely unable to refute it. If you refute now, don''t you also deny yourself? CEN Lanxi held his words in her heart, but there was no way to face grandma Gu. Even when Grandpa Gu died again, the whole family listened to grandma Gu For no other reason, grandma Gu, who was once a general, was born to be in a leading position. As time went by, outside gujia manor, the media had been crowded around the channel. What''s more, they set up elevators just to get first-hand news materials. Guests came one after another. There are many famous families in Los Angeles, and Gu''s position in Los Angeles is a leader. On grandma Gu''s 85th birthday, many people came not only from business circles, but also from political and military circles. The media''s hands are as cramped as they are, frantically pressing the shutter of the camera, trying to capture valuable characters and gossip. However, the vehicles of big people enter the manor directly, and there is no favorable news at all. With the time of the banquet getting closer and closer, the huge manor is already full of guests holding wine glasses. Each face is hung with a generous and decent smile, which shows all the forms of life. In the manor, there are several licensed media taking photos without disturbing the guests. These media were approved by Gu Beichen with the permission of grandma Gu. They are all famous media in Los Angeles and won''t write indiscriminately. These media know that I''m afraid there''s something going on tonight. Therefore, grandma Gu, who has always kept a low profile, will not only host the birthday banquet, but also invite the media to enter. "The Su family and an family are here..." someone whispered, "it seems that the marriage between Su and an is true?" "Who knows?" Someone sneered, "I heard that Enron disagreed... Because Su sanshao had an affair with Jane mo before!" "You and I don''t know what''s going on in the rich family. Everyone can make a stunt..." Someone sneered and answered, and immediately everyone agreed. Before the end of the discussion here, I saw the Li Yunze family and the military Lin family coming one after another As the Li family and Lin family, who play an important role in the medical and military circles and are family friends, their arrival made the media crazy for a while. "Looks like this... Something big happened?" Li Jinxi took Chen Xuan''s arm and looked around. "Are the reporters of Huaye also there?" She was a little surprised. Chen Xuan looked evil. "Grandma Gu asked Huaye to write a full draft on the front page tomorrow..." he shrugged. "When you coax the elderly to be happy." As soon as Li Jinxi heard this, she immediately turned her eyes with disdain. "Don''t get a cheap opportunity to sell good... I''m afraid everyone has broken their head?" "Did anyone tell you..." Chen Xuan sighed softly, "it''s a bad thing to dismantle the platform for her husband?" Li Jin Xi raised the corners of her mouth, "did anyone tell you that her wife is wrong and can''t get into bed at night?" "..." Chen Xuan pulled at the corner of his mouth, "you won!" Li Jin immediately proudly raised her chin. "Eh?" Chen Xuan suddenly gave a faint sigh. "What''s the matter?" Li Jinxi looked around subconsciously. Chen Xuan slightly picked his chin in one direction, and Li Jinxi looked Mo Shaochen and Shen Chu came over shoulder to shoulder... Followed by Chu Zixiao and Li Xiaoyue. "Are they two together again?" Li Jinxi asked subconsciously. Chen Xuan sighed darkly, "is it OK to have a longer brain? Even if two people are together on such an occasion, they can''t appear openly, okay? That''s not a topic of public opinion?" Li Jinxi was dissatisfied with Chen Xuan''s reprimand, but she was unable to refute, so she had to turn her mouth. People of the older generation have come together and started chatting, while those of the younger generation gradually get together. Mo Shaochen and Li Jinxi nodded slightly, then looked sideways at Li Xiaoyue, "go and have something to eat first?" Li Xiaoyue is a little embarrassed. She came here today at the invitation of Jian mo. It can be said that as the "only" family member of Jian Mo, even if she is out of place on this occasion today, she will come to support the scene. However, I didn''t expect that Mo Shaochen would call her in the afternoon and say to come together in the evening. Let''s just come together. When we get off, we happen to be opposite Shen Chu and Chu Zixiao. This is nothing Why is mo Shaochen caring about her now? Although she has ideas in her heart, it doesn''t mean she was misunderstood every minute on such an occasion! Around, people who knew Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue one after another and looked at her suspiciously. Although it is not the kind of amazing at a glance, Li Xiaoyue has her own aura of Queen fan, which matches Mo Shaochen''s feminine temperament to some extent. Just People who knew the inside story looked at Shen Chu one by one. Shen Chu clenched his teeth secretly and endured Mo Shaochen''s deliberately leaving her helpless. He always kept a faint smile on his face. "Let''s go..." Mo Shaochen was so indifferent from beginning to end, as if the sight of these people had nothing to do with him. Li Xiaoyue had no choice but to go to the dining area with Mo Shaochen after secretly making a remark. Li Jinxi and Chen Xuan took a look at each other. They only felt that the atmosphere around them was a little stiff. Just when they wanted to break this atmosphere, Xiao Jing stepped onto the rostrum. "First of all, thank you for coming today..." Xiao Jing said with a smile. As Gu Beichen''s special assistant, he is naturally familiar with this aspect. "Next, let''s invite grandma Gu, the birthday star, and Mrs. Chen Shao and Mrs. Shao!" Xiao Jing spoke briskly. Suddenly, the band''s music changed. While the lights in the venue dimmed, a beam of light fell on the second floor. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo helped grandma Gu to stand there. The three people appeared at the same time, which caused the madness of the media. Grandma Gu''s jujube red Tang costume mixed with modern design reveals her whole aura without doubt. Gu Beichen''s Handmade dark suit, which was cut appropriately, showed his tall figure as majestic and arrogant. His eyes were slightly drooping, showing an imperial domineering spirit. However, the most amazing of course is Jian mo. Beautiful face with exquisite makeup, slightly longer short hair, simple treatment under the skillful hands of the designer, wearing a sunset red chest and knee length dress. Without too much decoration, there is only a set of simple but luxurious diamond jewelry specially customized by Lin. The same simple shape, but her noble and elegant Gu Nana and Gu Beichen are both naturally superior, so they have a strong aura. However, today''s Jian Mo stood beside them, and there was no feeling that the light was covered up. "Gu Beichen and Jian Mo come out with old lady Gu. Is this to officially announce their relationship?" Chapter 394 With the spread of whispers, the range of sound diffusion is becoming wider and wider as the three people pick up the steps. It was revealed before that the relationship between Gu Beichen and Jian Mo was normal, as well as their recent pairing... However, none of them was a formal occasion, and the outside world had already talked about it in private. It is said that Jian Mo''s life experience can''t enter the eyes of the family, plus the things of Jian Zhanfeng and the Emperor... There are a lot of people waiting for Gu Beichen and Jian Mo to separate. However, on such an occasion today, Mrs Gu''s intentions are clear. Holding a birthday banquet and inviting the media... Have only one purpose. Let everyone know that Jian Mo is the granddaughter-in-law recognized by her old lady Gu. Jane Mo accepted the poison and baptism of all her eyes. While grandma Gu gently patted her hand, she looked at her with a smile. A flash flashed across, recording the peaceful scene of grandma Gu and Jane mo. However, it also aroused the jealousy of some people. Chu Zixiao looked at all this coldly. From beginning to end, he didn''t leave Jian mo Originally, all this was his, wasn''t it? "Sometimes I have to admit that they are very worthy..." The faint voice sounded around. Chu Zixiao looked sideways and saw that it was Jian Chang, with a chill on his indifferent face. "However, I can''t say that you don''t fit well when you stand beside Xiaomo!" Jane truss continued. "You don''t have to emphasize this to me all the time." Chu Zixiao snorted coldly, "Jian Heng, I want Jian Mo, and I agree to cooperate with you... However, if you go too far, it will only disgust people." When the words fell, Chu Zixiao glanced sideways at Jian Chang, turned and walked to Gu Ci and Chu tianqin. Jane truss coldly hooked the corners of her lips, looked at Chu Zixiao''s back, looked deep, and turned to Gu mohuai''s side. Gu mohuai, Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi are standing together, talking about the people surrounded by the lights. "Jian Mo and Beichen are still a good match..." Gu mohuai said with some meaning, and inadvertently looked at Cen Lanxi, who suddenly changed his face, "sister-in-law, do you think so?" CEN Lanxi secretly clenched her teeth, coldly looked at Gu Mo Huai and endured his sarcasm. Gu mohuai didn''t continue to say, but the smile on the corners of his mouth gradually deepened... It looked very warm, but it was cold. "Second uncle!" Jane truss came forward and shouted. Gu mohuai inadvertently glanced at Gu Moyuan and saw that his face had changed. He was very satisfied with his performance and nodded with Jian truss. CEN Lanxi didn''t know the real identity of Jian Heng. She just thought it was Gu mohuai''s adopted son, and didn''t care too much. She just stared at Jian Mo who had stood on the podium, and her eyes were full of hatred. Gu Moyuan''s mind is all on Jian Heng at the moment. He doesn''t know that his father is not Jian Zhanfeng at all, but he knows that this is his son. Gu Moyuan, who was in a complicated mood, wanted to resist looking at Jian Heng, but his sight was always uncontrollable and wanted to see Mo Huai asked him to shout "second uncle". I''m afraid he still can''t figure out why? Gu Moyuan listened solemnly as grandma Gu said her thanks on the stage. Fortunately, the light under the stage was dim and everyone''s attention was on the stage. No one found him wrong. "Today is my old woman''s birthday, and there will be another happy event for my family next month," grandma Gu looked around and said with everyone''s knowledge. "Beichen and Xiaomo will have a wedding. I invite you to come here in advance..." Grandma Gu put Jian Mo''s hand and Gu Beichen''s hand together and smiled kindly, "I hope you have a good time today... Next, Beichen and Xiaomo will dance for tonight''s party!" Applause broke out. I don''t know whether it was grandma Gu or congratulating Gu Beichen and Jian mo. Jane Mo was slightly stunned. She didn''t expect this link Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo deeply. After grandma Gu stepped back with a smile, he took Jian Mo''s men to the rostrum The people in the banquet have stepped aside one after another. While the lights are on, a circular venue is enclosed in the center. Gu Beichen stood in the middle of the unknown with Jian Mo, and the soft music originally played by the band gradually stopped. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen nervously, and the lip flap smeared with lip honey gently pricked down. "Just give me your hand!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and said with deep eyes, taking a step back. His left hand was pinned to the back of his waist, and his right hand stretched out in an arc and made a gentleman''s salute. Jane Mo''s heart beat like thunder and felt the piercing sight of everyone on her. There are jealousy, cynicism, waiting jokes Naturally, there is also a small number of encouragement and support. As a caretaker and media reporter, Luo Xiaomi has crowded in front of the crowd with his own favorable conditions. He picked up the camera and pressed it frantically in an attempt to record such a rare scene. She heard from her mother that her little uncle danced very well! Unfortunately, she hasn''t seen Today is such a great opportunity. We must not miss the first-hand information. Jian Mo took a breath secretly and gently put his hand with a blue diamond ring on Gu Beichen''s palm Gu Beichen put a thin smile on the corner of his mouth. While the ink pupil was slightly deep, he put a little force on his hand and pulled Jian Mo into his arms The sound of music reminds me that it is not the kind of soft music belonging to waltz as expected, but a staccato music with a strong sense of frustration Jane Mo brightened her eyes slightly and saw a smile across the bottom of Gu Beichen''s eyes. "When you were in the rain, you danced a person''s Tango..." Gu Beichen''s low and magnetic voice sounded leisurely. "I had only one idea at that moment. I can only accompany you in your dance!" There was something exploding in Jane Mo''s heart. Such a surprise made her slightly sour nose. In the national standard, she only likes tango. Such a duet dance shows not the perfection and rotation under the power, but the soul fit when their bodies are close to each other. She never danced tango with any man. When she studied, her partner was also a female teacher Later, when she was in great joy and sorrow and wanted to vent, she danced a person''s Tango. The perfection under loneliness baptized all her nerves. Tango is known as the "secret dance" between lovers. The entanglement of four legs, most of the body close to each other, feel each other''s heartbeat and throb for each other''s breath There has never been a run in, but it seems that we should exist for each other. Gu Beichen''s powerful, Jian Mo''s dancing steps are provocative, they rotate, lift and hook their legs... All the movements fit as if they had been practiced for thousands of times. The music is exciting, and the melody of two people dancing together in the middle is catching everyone''s attention Until the music was at the drum break point, Jian Mo''s leg hooked Gu Beichen''s leg. Under the powerful action of holding her waist, she slowly leaned back, and Gu Beichen slowly attached to her body The music stopped and the scene was quiet. I don''t know whether it was quiet in their dance or because it''s not suitable to make a sound at the moment. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo looked at each other. At this moment, all seemed to disappear, only each other "Kiss..." Suddenly, someone shouted! Chapter 395 Luo Xiaomi''s roar abruptly interrupted the quiet atmosphere in the field. Jian Mo and Gu Beichen didn''t move. They didn''t know whether they really wanted to kiss or because they had fallen into each other''s eyes and couldn''t come out at all A tango entangles the souls of two people completely. At that moment, Jian Mo felt that Gu Beichen''s eyes were slowly dissolving her, and then turned her into his blood. "Kiss, kiss..." "Kiss it!" "Kiss..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Luo Xiaomi took the lead in clapping his hands and shouting. Then, Li Jinxi and Chen Xuan participated Li Xiaoyue, some young noisy people in the field follow closely More and more people are clapping their hands, shouting "kiss" and looking forward to smiling at the corners of their mouths. Here are some people who know Gu Beichen''s past, but most people have changed when they contact him. They all want to know whether Gu Beichen will make such a move on such an occasion Chu Zixiao''s eyes have become cold. Shen Chu''s face has become ugly I still remember that when she put herself as a gift in such a big carton and surprised him, everyone was shouting "kiss", but Gu Beichen didn''t. His temperament was like that. Naturally, she didn''t mind. However, when the same thing happened, just because the other party was Jian mo... She almost instantly felt that Gu Beichen would kiss. Luo Xiaomi has aligned the lens and is waiting for the critical moment. Jian truss was weak and easily deviated from his sight, crossed the crowd and fell on Chu Zixiao''s face Gu Beichen and Xiao Mo are really giving power, and gradually encroaching on Chu Zi Xiao''s awesome struggle at the edge. Jian Mo''s face has become ruddy under everyone''s yelling. A pair of Jian Tong looked at Gu Beichen like water and wanted to get up. However, her focus was all over Gu Beichen, and she had no strength at all. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo shouted with some hesitation. She didn''t know whether it was because of tension or something. The voice was fascinating Gu Beichen attached himself and fell down. In bursts of inverted sound absorption, his thin lips had fallen on the lips of Jian mo Jian Mo''s eyes widened like an electric shock. Although he was already close to Gu Beichen, there was no need for affectation But on such an occasion, in such an atmosphere, her heartbeat seemed to rush out of her chest. "Aunt Gu, I haven''t felt so afraid for a long time..." Grandma Gu''s eyes are a little red, "so Jane Mo is the salvation of his life." "Well..." aunt LAN answered gently. "Ow, ow, ow..." Luo Xiaomi was not afraid of death. He completely ignored Gu Nanyi''s warning eyes and coaxed like crazy, "French long kiss, French hot kiss, French tongue kiss..." Gu Nanyi flips her eyes and has an impulse to go up and grab the camera in Luo Xiaomi''s hand and knock her unconscious! How did she give birth to such a cheap girl? Luo Xiaomi was so excited that he shouted as he coaxed. She really shouted everyone''s enthusiasm. One by one, she wanted to see how Gu Beichen, a cold and bloodthirsty man, would do at this moment What a pity! Who is Gu Beichen? The kiss just now was not because of everyone''s coaxing, but because Jane Mo couldn''t help being coquettish at that moment. But... Kissing or something, how can you perform in front of so many people? Leaving the delicate and soft lip flap, Gu Beichen helped Jian Mo up with his palm Jane''s face was shabby and stained with scarlet, and even the blush could not stop her ruddy. Everyone stared at Beichen with the same calm eyes "I knew it was impossible to kiss!" Chen Xuan shrugged and said, "Gu Beichen''s sullen, how can I let go?" Li Jinxi twisted it secretly. "Does this have a face?" Chen Xuan looks wronged. Men are no better than this. What are they better than? "Your man can''t compare with Beichen except this, of course..." Li Yunze''s evil voice sounded leisurely, with teasing. Chen Xuan suddenly looked cold. "At least I can compare with you?" "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth, snorted coldly and proudly, and didn''t speak. "Two childish men!" Li Jinxi couldn''t stand shaking her head. She let go of Chen Xuan and turned to find Shen Chu. "Thank you for coming to grandma''s birthday party," Gu Beichen said in a calm voice at the right time. "I hope you have a good time today." A banquet called grandma Gu''s birthday celebration kicked off with the dance between the person in charge of Gu''s family and his wife However, a banquet that gathered most famous families, political, commercial and military circles in Los Angeles was destined to be extraordinary after all. Some people have already slid into the dance floor and danced with the gentle music of the band. While chatting about the current situation in groups, some people tried to open a broader way for their territory Some people also laughed together and relaxed to enjoy the happiness brought by the party. Naturally, some people suppress the surging jealousy of the inner waves, but they have to wear a false smile on their face. Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi accompanied grandma Gu to entertain the guests. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo appeared in public for the first time and wanted to curry favor with the emperor and Gu Beichen. Of course, this is the best opportunity. Li Xiaoyue stood in the corner with a glass of red wine in her hand, silently looking at Jian Mo surrounded by the crowd, with a smile in her mouth. She can guarantee that the girl surrounded by those hypocritical women is running away in her heart at the moment But the most frustrating thing is that she has to pretend to smile one by one. "Today''s Jianmo is very beautiful..." Mo Shaochen came over after the entertainment. "She is suitable for Beichen." Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen. "At least it''s better than Shen Chu, isn''t it?" Mo Shaochen frowned slightly and looked at Li Xiaoyue. "Talk about the matter." Li Xiaoyue shrugged. "Do you know the biggest difference between Shen Chu and Niu Er?" "I''d like to hear it in detail!" Li Xiaoyue smiled, "interests and lovers, who is the first in my heart." Mo Shaochen''s eyes were deep. He smiled at Li Xiaoyue''s incisive comments. "He is worthy of being a lawyer, with sharp teeth, sharp mouth and fine mind." "I have to learn more from my senior brother..." Li Xiaoyue blinked playfully. "Go and say hello? Then I''ll take you back..." Mo Shaochen looked at the scene. "Grandma Gu''s play is better than any gossip." "OK." Li Xiaoyue answered. With Gu Beichen around, niu''er seems to have nothing to worry about Thinking, Li Xiaoyue subconsciously looked at Chu Zixiao. Seeing that he had never left Jian Mo, he couldn''t help feeling heavy. Does someone have to pay for the happiness of two people? Why can''t we let each other go Chapter 396 Jane Mo dealt with the women who came to talk. Her hypocritical faces made her face laugh and cramp It was not easy to find a neutral position. Jane Mo hurried to the rest area for a while. Looking at the people at the banquet, Jane Mo suddenly felt that it was not easy to be a qualified rich man. Practicing hypocrisy is a technical job! "Little aunt..." Suddenly, a cheerful voice came. Jian Mo had not responded yet. Luo Xiaomi had wrapped her arm and sat aside. Jane Mo looked at Luo Xiaomi reluctantly, "are you trying to scare me to death?" "It''s not..." Luo Xiaomi picked up his eyebrows and looked at Gu Beichen, who was talking to Grandpa Lin Nannan. "My uncle is afraid you''re bored. Let me come with you. By the way, I can block the women who come to talk to you." Jane Mo''s heart was warm for a while, "can you stop it?" "Yes!" Luo Xiaomi looked proud, "I''m here. Almost all of them won''t come here..." Jane Mo wondered, "why?" Luo Xiaomi smiled, "because I''m famous for my mouth poison! If anyone annoys me, I''ll write their scandal in the column later... You say, who dares to annoy me?" "..." Jane Mo was unable to laugh or cry. Luo Xiaomi has a pleasant temper. After the last chat, she also knows that the little girl is a little pepper. Whoever provokes it must be unlucky. With the background of Gu family and Luo family, they are also journalists... Indeed, no one dares to provoke them. No one will provoke the media for a trifle, which is the most basic consensus of celebrities and public figures. Indeed, with Luo Xiaomi, Jane Mo found that she could really relax "Little aunt, do you want to eat?" Luo Xiaomi put the camera in his bag. "Let''s go there. It''s close to the catering area." Jane Mo was really hungry. Although she had eaten before coming down, she didn''t eat too much because she was nervous. As soon as I relaxed and reminded by Luo Xiaomi, I was really hungry. They walked to the dining area with each other Along the way, it is inevitable to say hello. Considering that she wants to save face for grandma Gu and Gu Beichen, Jian Mo smiles politely even if her face is stiff. Luo Xiaomi is much more simple and rough. He completely ignores those people and dislikes that Jane Mo is too slow. He took her hand and said coquettishly: "little aunt, I''m starving to death. Let''s go!" Jane Mo looked at the crowd with guilt, and then she could only be dragged away by Luo Xiaomi. "I strongly recommend that you stay with me when you attend such a party in the future." Jane Mo felt it. As soon as Luo Xiaomi heard it, he immediately brightened his eyes, "OK, OK, you tell your uncle." "Why tell him?" Jane Mo didn''t react for a moment. It''s strange. Luo Xiaomi rolled his eyes. "Little aunt, I''m a reporter... Little uncle won''t take me, okay?" Jane Mo was stunned, and then smiled, "you can not bring a camera." "Problem, I have a mobile phone..." Luo Xiaomi seems to be unable to stand himself. "As soon as I enter the entertainment record, it is like a sea. From then on, I am a passer-by... You don''t know. Now I feel itchy when I see gossip." Jane Mo expressed understanding smile This is an occupational disease! It''s the same reason that she wants to study when she sees architecture, which is a love of her career from the heart. Thinking of this, Jian Mo suddenly thought of the design of the villa for Shaoshi. After the rain on that day and field research, her inspiration for the villa was out of control recently "Little aunt, let''s eat over there!" Luo Xiaomi saw Chu Zixiao walking past and hurried to take Jian Mo there. They have three children now. Chu Zixiao and Luo Xiaomi have a special admiration for Gu Beichen, so it''s good to have a small relationship. As for the second brother of Gu Yuan''s family, Luo Xiaomi doesn''t like it at all. He is very proud... Although he is also very capable. Her dislike probably comes mainly from her dislike for her second aunt and second uncle, and by the way, her dislike for their children Jian Mo didn''t see Chu Zixiao sit down where Luo Xiaomi said at the beginning. When she came to her, she wanted to leave, which seemed too deliberate Fortunately, with Luo Xiaomi, Jian Mo doesn''t think it''s too embarrassing. "Big brother," Luo Xiaomi said with an eyebrow, "didn''t you tell me before that you would show me your girlfriend?" Jane Mo suddenly ''cluttered'' in her heart, so she shouldn''t place her hope on Luo Xiaomi, a second goods. Without seeing Chu Zixiao, Jian Mo could feel his deep eyes falling on her She can only pretend to eat and keep her emotions from leaking out. "Have you seen..." Chu Zixiao said calmly, and his sight fell on Luo Xiaomi from Jian mo. Luo Xiaomi was slightly stunned. "Have you seen it? When? Why don''t I know?" She repeatedly asked, "are you kidding? My memory is still good... I must have never seen it!" Chu Zixiao''s voice sank slightly, "you''ve seen her, but you don''t know she is..." Jian Mo''s heart has been picked up with Chu Zixiao''s words. She can guarantee that if Luo Xiaomi goes to the end, he can say "isn''t the one next to you"? "Well, I''ll go to the bathroom..." Jane Mo said calmly. Chu Zixiao put a faint smile on the corners of his mouth, and his eyes were deep. Luo Xiaomi didn''t find anything unusual. He just asked, "little aunt, shall I accompany you?" "No need..." Jane Mo shook her head. "You and..." she paused and then said, "you and Zixiao talk first." "Oh..." Luo Xiaomi answered. Jane Mo picked up her handbag and turned away. Going to the bathroom was just an excuse. However, she walked in the direction of the bathroom Chu Zixiao''s sight fell on Jian Mo''s back, and the smile at the corners of his mouth spread the evil spirit. She knows him, doesn''t she? If she has been here, he may really guide Xiaomi She was still so calm and smart that she could easily understand his ideas. "Big brother, little aunt is great, isn''t she?" Luo Xiaomi likes Jian Mo very much. Seeing Chu Zixiao looking at her, he hurried to ask. "Yes!" Chu Zixiao answered gently. "Do you think she and her little uncle are a special match..." Luo Xiaomi looked like a flower maniac. "You don''t know. I was particularly moved when I saw her holding hands with her little uncle in taigrandma''s villa that day. That feeling is like returning to my first love." Chu Zixiao''s eyes were deep and looked at Luo Xiaomi, but the corners of his mouth were cold, "isn''t it?" "Don''t you think so?" Luo Xiaomi asked, "besides, I haven''t seen my little uncle treat anyone so well... Even Shen Chu didn''t have it before!" Shen Chu''s footsteps suddenly stagnated. She just went to pick up some food. She didn''t expect to hear Luo Xiaomi''s words. The hand holding the bag clenched slightly, and she clenched her teeth. "I don''t think..." at the right time, Chu Zixiao slowly opened his mouth, "she is very suitable for Beichen!" Chapter 397 "Why?" Luo Xiaomi widened his eyes strangely, "I think it''s very good!" Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but the corners of his mouth were hooked with a smile that people couldn''t understand. It''s her woman. How can it be suitable for Beichen? Chu Zixiao''s eyes gradually deepened. Seeing Luo Xiaomi''s gossip face, he said, "take your time and I''ll say hello to some friends." Luo Xiaomi turned his mouth and ignored Chu Zixiao. She thought her little aunt and uncle were very suitable... Sure enough, the Emotional IQ of men and women were different. Without much thought, Luo Xiaomi continued to eat while waiting for Jian mo Shen Chu didn''t have the bath look to eat at all. She looked at Luo Xiaomi. When she looked back, she was right against Chu Zixiao... Just one eye. She turned and left with a cold face. Chu Zixiao''s vision darkened, looked at Luo Xiaomi, and then left with one hand. It seems... What Xiaomi said just now, Shen Chu listened to it really. Gu Beichen glanced at the direction of Luo Xiaomi. Because of the angle, he couldn''t see the position where Jian Mo sat before. In due time, Luo Xiaomi looked sideways at Jian Mo''s sitting position before and continued to eat with a smile for several seconds Gu Beichen was a little relieved and thought that Jane Mo was still nearby. "President Gu," a bald man raised his glass with a smile, "after the second shareholders'' meeting, it was followed by the wedding with Miss Jane. Congratulations." Gu Beichen''s thin lips slightly raised a shallow radian and nodded slightly. They raised their glasses and sipped the red wine, and then the topic came to the point. "Gu is not the only one who talks about the 1% shares I hold recently..." the bald man said with a smile. "Of course, if I can cooperate with Gu, I am still willing." Gu Beichen''s face remained unchanged, and his cold face was so indifferent, "what is the general intention of Wang?" President Wang smiled. He was not vague about matters related to his own interests. "The other party has said more than double the market price..." President Wang looked at Gu Beichen and tried to see something on his face. Unfortunately, there was nothing but indifference, "... I don''t know what price president Gu is going to offer?" Gu Beichen frowned invisibly. The double of the market price is an astronomical figure. The people behind him have completely ruled out Gu mohuai Just, who is it? Gu Beichen raised his glass, took a shallow SIP and said indifferently, "although I hope to fulfill grandpa''s wish, it is obvious that... The emperor''s shares will be recovered with double or even more, which is not the original intention of me and grandpa." Mr. Wang didn''t expect that Gu Beichen didn''t move at all. He was a little surprised. They are all old people who hold shares of the emperor, and they are also very aware of the turbulent undercurrent between Gu Beichen and Gu mohuai After the last shareholders'' meeting, people with clear eyes saw that the 5% in Gu Yuan''s hand was dangerous for Gu Beichen. Chu Zixiao should have supported Gu Beichen, but he didn''t... obviously, due to his interests, he may also choose Gu muhuai. There will be 10% of the shares. If Gu Beichen doesn''t take back the loose shares, the Emperor may fall into Gu muhuai''s hands again. Since Gu Beichen is not excited, President Wang naturally can''t go on, otherwise he thought that the double market price he just said was a deliberate starting price! Although, it''s really a floor price. Now someone outside is using 1.5 times to buy imperial retail shares, but no one knows who that person is ¡­¡­ Jian Mo''s hand was holding the glass platform, and she just felt a little dizzy in her head. She shook her head and dared not move, trying to make the dizziness disappear and go out again. After being diagnosed with severe anemia last time, aunt Luo will give her a medicated diet every day, and she will try her best to eat a balanced diet. However, it seems that there is no effect at all. Recently, this feeling of occasional dizziness often happens At first she would move, and the dizziness was even worse. More times, she knew that if she didn''t move when she was dizzy and had a rest with her eyes closed, she would be fine. Jane Mo swallowed it secretly, trying to calm her mind The feeling of vertigo came in bursts, and her hand holding the glass platform gradually tightened up. Footsteps came, and then the door of the bathroom was opened Jane Mo opened her eyes and slowly returned to normal after a dazzling black in front of her eyes. Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo and saw that her face was pale and strange. She hummed coldly and went to the mirror to mend her makeup. "Why, are you out of strength?" Shen Chu said sarcastically. Jian Mo still feels dizzy and doesn''t want to fight with Shen Chu She has now been announced by grandma Gu. Sometimes, there is no need to argue. When Shen started to gather up the powder box, he turned around and looked at Jane foam, who was holding the glass table. He said with a sneer, "such an occasion can not be adapted to everyone, so it can''t be carried. How can we stand next to Beichen?" Jian Mo swallowed it secretly and ignored Shen Chu. Despite the feeling of dizziness, she gritted her teeth and propped herself out of the bathroom Whether she can stand beside ah Chen is her own and ah Chen has the final say, and nothing to do with others! Jane Mo thought and walked out with her hand on the wall Suddenly, Jane Mo just felt a ''buzz'' in her head. She subconsciously grabbed a pot of green plants placed aside and wanted to support herself However, she just caught the blade in vain. Suddenly, the whole person lost his center of gravity and fell to the front "Foam!" The sound of exclamation came, and a figure ran from the front with an arrow step... When Jane Mo was about to fall, he hurriedly grabbed her. Jane Mo''s dizzy eyes became vain, but subconsciously clung to the person holding her But because of the inertia, Jian Mo hit the wall. "Well..." The light and stuffy voice came as his head knocked against the wall. Jian Mo''s dizzy head became more and more dizzy. Before she could feel the pain, Jane Mo''s mouth was suddenly blocked by warmth ''click!'' The sound of the shutter came quietly from the corner, but because of the distance and the situation at the moment, whether it was Jian mo... Or holding her, because Su Junli, who was habitually kissing her lips, didn''t hear it. Shen Chu came out of the bathroom and looked at the scene, his eyes widened in an instant Jane Mo is still in a dizzy state. The whole person doesn''t know what happened. Su Junli was also stunned by this situation. He looked at Jian Mo close at hand. At that moment, in his own heart, he didn''t want to let go However, he also clearly knows what an accident will cause on such an occasion? "Ah --" Suddenly, someone screamed. Su Jun, who had already let go of Jian Mo, stood up with a slight lag and looked sideways... He saw Enron standing at the corner and staring at them. Behind her stood a few female friends she played well. Su Jun''s gentle face showed a touch of complex emotion. Enron stared and shouted, "Su Junli, you really have an affair with Jane Mo?" Chapter 398 Su Jun was slightly heavy from his sight, and his warm face was also full of haze on weekdays. His voice was a little sinister, "Enron, you can''t talk nonsense..." Enron doesn''t care so much at the moment. Her purpose is not to get engaged to Su Jun. Before that, she told her father that there was a married woman hidden in Su Jun''s centrifuge, and her father insisted that it was an affair. Ha ha, is she caught now? "I''m talking nonsense?" Enron stuck in his waist and quit, "sisters, tell me, am I talking nonsense or facts?" "Su sanshao, you''ve kissed. Don''t tell us it''s all an illusion?" A girl has rolled her eyes and said. "Right... Although it''s not a glorious thing, it''s also a fact. How can you say Enron in turn?" Someone immediately agreed. Enron looked at Su Junli with pride on his face and walked forward with arrogance in his eyes, "tut Tut, let me see, who is this woman?" Su Jun left his face and blocked Jian Mo, who was shaking his head, "Enron, stop making trouble!" "I make trouble?" Enron sneered, "Su Junli, I''ll say it here today... I don''t care who you like, who you seduce or have an affair with, it has nothing to do with Enron." She sneered at Jian Mo, who was not in the state, "but it''s impossible for me to get engaged to a man whose mind is not on me!" Jane Mo''s dizzy feeling is finally much better, but what happened at the moment, she is still not in the state. Shen Chu sneered at Jian Mo and looked at Su Junli and Enron. Some people are so desperate that God doesn''t want to clean up. "You''re not the only one who doesn''t want to get engaged," Su Jun said with a complete cold face. "But you know the reason why you don''t want to get engaged." Enron suddenly ''cluttered'' in his heart, but thinking that Su Junli couldn''t know, he immediately raised his chin. "Su Junli, I don''t care. You kiss me with Chen''s young wife on such an occasion. Even if I don''t mind setting up a home, can I care about my family?" Enron raised his voice and roared. "Enron!" Su Junli was completely angry. Enron was still frightened by Su Jun''s departure. On weekdays, Su Junli looked handsome and easygoing, gentle as if nothing in the world could arouse his temper. Because of this, she dared to be unscrupulous now. However, at the moment, Su Jun left his cold face and swallowed it involuntarily. "You don''t know what happened and just talk nonsense here. Is this your upbringing?" Su Jun asked angrily. "What kind of upbringing do I need to settle down? Su sanshao said here?" A cold voice came from the corner. I saw Enron''s father, an Feng, walking over. Su Junli cursed secretly. He didn''t know how an''s popularity came over. The house in front of gujia manor is very large. The location of the bathroom is still a distance from the banquet hall. It''s a coincidence that it came so fast. And even more coincidentally, it was not only an Fengxing who came, but also many guests poured in... Filling the passage near the spacious bathroom. Jane Mo''s face was still a little pale. She looked at Su Jun Li and Enron confrontational in a daze. Although I don''t know what happened, I still know that the two people are afraid of a contradiction because of her. "Jun Li?" Jane Mo didn''t notice the crowd that had gradually poured in. She just frowned and shouted disgustingly. "Ha, it''s so close..." Enron has been difficult to ride a tiger. "Su Junli, dare you say you didn''t have anything just now?" "What the hell happened?" An Fengxing asked coldly. "We accompany Enron to the bathroom," a girl said hurriedly. "I saw Su Junli and Jian Mo kissing here!" The inverted sound of "Hua" came, and everyone stared at Jian Mo incredulously. Jian Mo also looked at Su Junli in amazement, as if she didn''t know how to deal with such a situation. Shen Chu sneered at Cen Lanxi, who had just come over, and there was an element of watching a good play in the bottom of his eyes. "Mr. Su, this is what you call sincere marriage to settle down?" An Fengxing asked angrily. Su Zhenqi frowned, looked at Su Junli and said in a deep voice, "we don''t know what the truth is. Popularity... It''s about the reputation of Junli and Mrs. Chen Shao. It''s better not to be arbitrary." CEN Lanxi could not hear anything, and her body trembled with anger. Just now someone said that something happened here. It''s family oriented. It can''t worry mom, the birthday star. She came to have a look, but she didn''t expect to hear such a result. "Mom..." Gu Yuan whispered in Cen Lanxi''s ear with a cold hiss in her voice, "this Jian Mo is too much, and she doesn''t look at today''s occasion..." she seemed helpless. "Even if there was little scandal with Su Jiasan in the past, I didn''t expect today..." CEN Lanxi suddenly looked at Gu Yuan, "what do you mean?" Gu Yuan looked around, as if she was very angry, but she couldn''t be heard. She said in a low voice: "four years ago, the scandal of Beichen''s divorce with her was due to Su Junli''s participation. Later, Jian Mo went to England to study, but Su Junli also put down Los Angeles and passed everything together!" CEN Lanxi was furious at this. She didn''t like Jane Mo because of Sumer''s affairs, and there was Jane Zhanfeng in the middle At the moment, hearing Gu Yuan say so, cen Lanxi couldn''t control herself for a moment. Listening to everyone''s gossip, Jane Mo can understand what happened She just became Gu Beichen''s wife. Why did so many people give her all kinds of obstacles? "Miss an, your boyfriend can talk nonsense, but you can''t talk nonsense!" Concerning Gu Beichen''s face, Jane Mo was always unambiguous. She looked at Enron''s face and said coldly, "you said I kissed Junli. What''s the evidence?" When Jane Mo said this, she looked at Enron with overwhelming momentum. Enron was a little timid. "I... i... we all saw it!" "Yes!" Several girls with Enron quickly agreed. "You don''t want to get engaged with Jun, of course it''s up to you..." Jane Mo snorted coldly. Enron was speechless at once. He didn''t expect that Jane Mo would turn upside down. "Tut Tut, there''s really evidence..." suddenly, someone said, "it''s all released online." As soon as they heard this, they took out their mobile phones one after another. Sure enough... The official website of Los Angeles was turned into a hot post in an instant. Su Junli and Jian Mo''s "wall Dong kiss" stood out in the eyes. CEN Lanxi was in a hurry. Before everyone reacted, he walked forward. When everyone looked at her suspiciously, he only heard a "pop" fall. "Mom!" Gu Beichen just heard about things here and saw Cen Lanxi raise his hand, but it was too late. Gu Beichen strode forward and hugged Jian Mo into his arms. Eagle eyes looked at Cen Lanxi deeply, "I believe her..." Chapter 399 Gu Beichen''s sudden appearance and his attitude obviously quieted the scene. The burning pain on Jane Mo''s face can be said that more things happened before she had time to face the situation. Today, she was nervous. She was worried that there would be a confrontation with Cen Lanxi... Even, she trembled to maintain her best state so as not to humiliate Gu Beichen. Finally? She not only humiliated him, but also lost a big face! Jane Mo is neither angry nor sad. The most is self mockery Isn''t it just with Gu Beichen? As for the whole world, does she look down on her? Gu Beichen gradually used his strength to hold Jian Mo''s hand. He didn''t know whether he was restraining his anger or comforting Jian mo. Jane Mo buried her face in his chest. She was always strong. She was rarely weak and wanted to explain: "I didn''t..." "I know!" Gu Beichen comforted softly, ignoring everyone''s eyes on them. Jane Mo''s nose was a little sour, "I just got dizzy and almost fell down, so..." "You don''t need to explain to me, and there''s no need to explain to anyone!" Gu Beichen interrupted Jian Mo, "you don''t need anyone to believe you, as long as I believe you!" The calm words showed lingran momentum. The people who stood far didn''t hear what Gu Beichen said, but the people who stood near listened really. Su Jun left his eyes a little deeper. His heart was astringent, but he was happy for Jian mo. Her choice is right. In this world... Who can support her with a world that can be at ease without her own strength like Gu Beichen? Enron flapped her eyelashes, and Gu Beichen she knew was too cold to be close to... Such words should not be said from his mouth. CEN Lanxi was so angry that his body began to tremble and his head fainted Gu Moyuan hurried forward and held her, "what''s going on?" No one answered, but looked at Gu Beichen and Jian Mo quietly. Shen Chu felt ridiculous. At the moment, his heart seemed to be trampled on by others. Why did Jane Mo get Gu Beichen so waiting for her? Once she was so kind to him, why did she leave in exchange for not waiting, but abandoning? Hate filled Shen Chu''s body. She looked at the scene coldly and then looked at Chu Zixiao with the same hate. Two people who can''t love ha-ha! Shen Chu smiled coldly, then turned and left from the other side. No one saw Shen Chu leave, and everyone''s eyes fell on Gu Beichen and Jian mo. Jian Mo was protected in his arms by Gu Beichen, and all the problems were solved by him. Li Yunze motioned to Chen Xuan. Chen Xuan already understood and sent a text message to the people below Since some people put photos of Su Junli and Jian Mo "kissing" on the Internet, they must want to arouse greater public opinion. At the moment, Gu Beichen and the beast trapped in the cage are almost crazy because Jian Mo is beaten by his mother People who know him well know how he will kill if this matter continues to spread in the troubled times of the emperor. It was originally intended to write a manuscript that Jian Mo and Gu Beichen were recognized by grandma Gu. However, due to the photos exposed on the Internet, everything that should be sweet will become a disguised explanation to suppress indecent photos. Jane Mo is sad, and Gu Beichen knows. Such a sad because of him, he also knows Because it was clear that Cen Lanxi slapped Jian Mo, which made him especially unbearable. Jian Mo grabbed Gu Beichen''s skirt with a small hand and didn''t want him to conflict with Cen Lanxi How can he confront his mother? "Ah Chen, I''m a little dizzy..." Jane Mo said in a muffled voice. She didn''t want to be watched by these people. She was so tired. Gu Beichen converged on the confrontation with Cen Lanxi, ignored everyone, and picked up Jian Mo horizontally. When Aunt LAN helped grandma Gu over, she passed everyone coldly. Su Jun looked at Enron coldly, "as you wish?" He sneered, "I hope you can keep your secret without me!" Then, he looked at Enron''s belly, and then left coldly. Enron''s head exploded Is Su Junli aware of her pregnancy? "Su Junli..." Enron shouted in a hurry. However, it was only when he shouted that he could reflect his current situation. Su Junli stopped in front of an Fengxing, "Uncle an, I''m afraid... The Su family can''t get a daughter-in-law who makes trouble." In a word, he publicly refused to settle down. The sound of inverted absorption came again, and everyone kept silent and looked at the man who was as gentle as jade and had the reputation of Prince of piano. Su Jun looked at Su Zhenqi and left without saying anything. Su Zhenqi sighed secretly, knowing that Su Jun''s centrifugal intention had been decided, he could only be helpless. However, as Jun Li said, the Su family is a family of music and culture. It really can''t tolerate Enron, a girl who is not afraid of small things A banquet ended in such an accident. Grandma Gu was a person who had gone through great storms. Her position was emphasized by the sentence "I stand on the side of Beichen and Xiaomo". Xiao Jing has started emergency public relations and asked Xie Haitian to deal with everything on the Internet. In addition, Huaye began to write the whole manuscript overnight. Although this matter has attracted the attention of many people, it has not deteriorated further Jian Mo''s body was uncomfortable. With Cen Lanxi''s slap, she completely lost her spirit. After Li Yunze gave her a general examination, it was initially caused by anemia. He suggested Gu Beichen take Jian Mo to the hospital for a comprehensive physical examination. The body can sometimes deceive people, and many hidden causes can''t be noticed at all. Jian Mo fell asleep in drowsiness. Under the tired look on her face, there were clearly visible palm prints on her pale face. "Would you like to talk to your aunt?" Li Yunze was worried, "your relationship can''t be so rigid all the time!" Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Li Yunze sighed deeply, "you don''t care. Where''s Jane Mo? She''s a strong and arrogant person. She was said in public and slapped by her aunt..." he looked at Gu Beichen. "Jane Mo doesn''t want you to be embarrassed." Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was completely shrouded in haze. He knew what Jane Mo was thinking. Because it is clear, it hurts. "Go and talk. I''ll stay here for a while..." Li Yunze knew that Gu Beichen didn''t trust Jian mo. Gu Beichen nodded, pulled the quilt again for Jian Mo, and then got up and left Walking to the house where Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi lived in the manor, the night shrouded Gu Beichen and showed a cold air. There was a faint sound of quarrel coming from the house. I couldn''t hear it clearly because of the distance. Gu Beichen strode over and opened the door. At the moment when the door was closed, Gu Moyuan''s dignified voice came "You caused Jane Zhanfeng''s death... Can''t you be nice to Jane because of this? After all, she is the woman your son likes!" Suddenly, Gu Beichen''s face was shrouded in indifference Chapter 400 Gu Beichen forgot his reaction and just stood there, listening to the quarrel in the direction of the bedroom "Mo Huai and Yu Lan also died because of Jian Zhanfeng!" CEN Lanxi roared back sharply. Gu Moyuan looked at Cen Lanxi with a helpless face and said, "Lanxi, human life is not calculated in this way... Besides, the law ruled that it had nothing to do with Jane Zhanfeng!" "Of course you''ll think so..." Cen Lanxi sneered. "If someone takes care of Su Mo for you, you can steal sunshine with Su Mo occasionally. Naturally, everything you say is right." Gu Moyuan stopped talking and just looked at Cen Lanxi disappointed He really did nothing in his life. Under the strength of his parents, he just walked quietly However, for Cen Lanxi''s feelings, he has never changed. Sumer, for him, it was also a stain of life. But when it comes to "Stealing Sunshine"... Where to start? Even if there is a mistake, it is also an unknown situation "Why, you have no way to refute?" CEN Lanxi roared sharply, "for a man who killed my only sister and brother-in-law and a woman who destroyed my family, what right do you have to accuse me?" Gu Moyuan stopped talking. It''s not that there''s no way to blame, but what''s the point of saying this now? After all, Jane Zhanfeng died because of Lan Xi After all, Sumer has his child! Now, what else can he do except feel guilty for Jian Zhanfeng, Su Mo and Lan Xi? "What you just said is true?" The cold voice came at the right time, with a cold breath, as if people were suddenly in winter in summer. Gu Moyuan''s body suddenly stiffened. CEN Lanxi looked sideways... His eyes widened when he saw Gu Beichen standing at the door of the bedroom. Gu Beichen didn''t ask again, just waiting for the surprised two people to recover their emotions In fact, from the reaction of his parents, his last hope was broken. "Beichen..." Gu Moyuan said, but he didn''t know what to say. CEN Lanxi''s original sharp face gradually recovered calm, and calmed down for the first time, "what do you ask is it true?" Her tone was slightly frozen, with a touch of expectation. Secretly swallowed, cen Lanxi carefully asked, "do you want to ask sumo to destroy me and your father, or does Jane Zhanfeng kill your aunt and uncle?" Gu Beichen looked at Cen Lanxi with a pair of eagle eyes. "What I asked is..." Gu Beichen narrowed his eyes slightly, paused, and slowly asked the second half of the sentence, "... Jane Zhanfeng''s death!" A thunderbolt of "boom" exploded in Cen Lanxi''s brain, which made her legs and feet soft and she was about to fall down. Fortunately, Gu Moyuan quickly helped her "You, you... What did you say?" CEN Lanxi asked tremblingly. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but quietly looked at Cen Lanxi whose face became bad. After a while, a sarcastic smile gradually appeared on one side of his thin lip Such ridicule, but I don''t know whether it''s because of self ridicule or the development of things. It''s unexpected. It seems that he can''t accept the ending for a long time. He has been checking the things by Yujing lake. When he met Jane Zhanfeng for the last time, they talked secretly for several hours However, within a few days, Jane Zhanfeng''s foot fell accidentally. Such an accident is mixed with too much. But he never thought that he had something to do with his mother If it''s a frame up, if it''s an accident, shouldn''t they explain it? However, no! "All along," Gu Beichen''s voice was a little cold, but his tone was calm without any tone. "I kept forgiving you, but you kept looking for problems for me..." He sneered and looked at Cen Lanxi disappointed. Finally, he turned around without saying anything "Beichen!" CEN Lanxi cried sadly. She broke away from Gu Moyuan and ran forward to hold Gu Beichen. "It was an accident." There was no expression on Gu Beichen''s cold face. "It''s an accident or anything..." he laughed at himself. "Now, is there any difference?" CEN Lanxi''s heart suddenly shook and subconsciously let go of Gu Beichen. "Mom..." Gu Beichen was tired at the bottom of his eyes. "Jian Mo is the only thing I want now..." his voice was so faint that people couldn''t catch it, but it showed incomparable firmness. "For her, I can exchange everything I have for it." CEN Lanxi''s breathing became heavy. Gu Beichen looked sideways at Cen Lanxi, "but all this can''t equal the truth of mom..." The self mockery of the corners of his mouth deepened. Gu Beichen stared deeply at Cen Lanxi, then converged his eyes, turned and walked outside The light poured down and pulled Gu Beichen''s figure away long until it disappeared at the door CEN Lanxi flushed her eyes, and her eyes were filled with tears. "Mo yuan, what should I do?" CEN Lanxi asked sadly. Gu Moyuan''s dignified face. What''s the use of asking what to do now? Since he grew up in front of his parents, his son was not particularly close to them. In addition, what happened before and after... And his temperament changed greatly after being kidnapped. There seems to be a gap between his parents and him. Now, with the addition of Jian Zhanfeng, it is inserted between Beichen and Jian mo Gu Moyuan suddenly felt a little chilly. He didn''t know the position of his heart on the table. If Beichen knew that Jian Chang was his child with Su Mo, how would he react. Gu Beichen steps on the soft grass, step by step Finally, he stood in front of the house used to entertain guests. The crystal lamp emits a soft but bright light, and the servant is still cleaning. Last moment, he and Mo''er were Tango dancing here The next moment, his mother became the one who forced her father to death Is it too dramatic, or, as Mo''er said, do people all over the world dislike them when they are together? Footsteps came from behind, and Gu Beichen restrained his mood. "How''s Jane Mo?" Gu muhuai asked. Gu Beichen glanced lightly at Jian truss, and then looked at Gu mohuai, "very good." Gu muhuai smiled, "that''s good, that''s good... It''s inevitable that girls are uncomfortable to be said like this. However, it''s good if you believe her..." Gu Beichen looks unchanged and looks at Gu mohuai performing a "second uncle" here. "Very high heart, Xiaomo can have a husband like you..." Jian Heng said with a smile, with an evil smell all over her. Gu Beichen said coldly, "but Mo''er is not so happy with your brother." Chapter 401 The smile on Jian Heng''s face coagulated instantly. He didn''t expect Gu Beichen to say so directly. Gu mohuai smiled and laughed, as if he didn''t see the problem between the two people, and said: "in the future, the two brothers will communicate more... Whether it''s the relationship between Jian Mo, or between you and your brothers..." "Brother?" Gu Beichen said coldly, looking at Gu silently, "second uncle, Gu''s family really can''t be touched by anyone." As soon as his words fell, not only Jian Heng, but also Gu mohuai changed his face. "Mo''er is alone in the house. I''m not sure. The second uncle helps himself." Gu Beichen said indifferently. Without looking at Jian truss, he turned and left. Jian Long''s face was filled with anger. When Gu Beichen walked away, he said with gnashing teeth: "I think when can you be cold and arrogant?" Gu muhuai gradually converged the expression on his face and looked at Jian truss. "Those who achieve great things must be able to endure." Jane truss secretly bit her teeth. "If you practice Gu Beichen''s gloomy coldness, you''re afraid you can''t fight him?" Gu mohuai sneered. "I see, second uncle!" Jane truss clenched her teeth and hung her eyes. "I took you away from Angola for the present situation..." Gu said coldly. "Although my purpose is obvious, your fortune depends on yourself." Jane truss immediately drooped her shoulders. Those years in Angola were the last thing he wanted to mention in his life Also because of the years Gu Beichen gave him Angola, he has a new goal in his life. Let Gu Beichen try his... Life is better than death! ¡­¡­ Luo Xiaomi leaned against the trunk of the banyan tree and rowed his feet back and forth on the grass. He looked pitifully at the red brick house in front of him and opened his mouth. Gu Beichen came over from a distance and saw her look pitiful. He frowned slightly and walked forward. Luo Xiaomi heard the sound and looked away... Seeing Gu Beichen, he was so frightened that he quickly stood up straight. "Little uncle..." Luo Xiaomi shouted, looked at Beichen and hung his head, just like a child who did something wrong. Gu Beichen did not change his face and sat down on a bench. Luo Xiaomi secretly glanced at Gu Beichen, walked over timidly and sat down on one side. The atmosphere of silence condensed the surrounding air. Luo Xiaomi felt that no matter in the past or now, the only thing that his little uncle hasn''t changed is that he doesn''t get angry and powerful. "Little uncle, I''m wrong..." Luo Xiaomi lowered his head and said in a voice. If she accompanied her little aunt to the bathroom, there would be no such embarrassment Although the information on the Internet is controlled now, she is an entertainment writer. She knows too much about what will happen in private even if tomorrow''s news is suppressed. After all, my uncle can control a large range, a small range... For example, the circle of friends can''t be completely controlled. Scandals tend to attract more attention than good news. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but the eagle''s eyes fell on the house in front. Gradually, the ink pupil was as deep as the sea. Obviously, it looks calm, but the dark place is already choppy. He suddenly didn''t know how to face Mo''er He asked her if she believed him! She replied that as long as he said no, she would believe it. But now? Gu Beichen''s silence made Luo Xiaomi''s heart more and more bottomless. She looked at him pitifully, "little uncle..." "Xiaomi..." "Well?" Luo Xiaomi answered. Gu Beichen looked back at Luo Xiaomi. "Do you think your little aunt and I will have a result?" Luo Xiaochen asked her if he thought of this Most importantly, why did she feel that her little uncle was not confident? But... How is it possible? What my little uncle wants and wants to do has never been impossible. "Didn''t you have a result with your little aunt?" Luo Xiaomi asked suspiciously, "grandma agreed!" Luo Xiaomi smiled. "Besides, my little uncle and aunt are so in love. I think... Nothing can tear you apart!" "Really?" Two words, slowly, through the distant overflow Gu Beichen''s thin lips. Luo Xiaomi nodded firmly. "Little uncle, I guarantee with my few credibility..." she blinked her eyes. "Little aunt is the woman who loves you most I''ve ever seen!" From small to large, my little uncle was surrounded by women. Although my uncle is clean, it doesn''t mean he doesn''t attract bees and butterflies! But even Shen Chu didn''t think she loved her little uncle much before... Sure enough, she didn''t leave for herself in the end? But the little aunt is different. That night at granny''s villa, she can feel that the little aunt is the kind of person who can pay for the little uncle. Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a faint radian. That smile was particularly charming under the dim light of the night lamp Luo Xiaomi looked at Gu Beichen in a daze and cried for a while Why is uncle Mao smiling so charming? It''s more charming than all the male stars she''s ever seen "The third sister didn''t catch you back together?" Gu Beichen saw Luo Xiaomi stunned and asked with a restrained smile. At the mention of Gu Nanyi, Luo Xiaomi was discouraged, "I told my mother to come and accompany my little aunt... And then I''ll apologize to you." Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, "go back." "Little uncle..." Luo Xiaomi shouted quickly. Luo Xiaochen hurriedly stood up and looked at Bei mi "Some things are inevitable." Gu Beichen put down a word and walked to the house without saying anything. Luo Xiaomi stood where she was and looked at Gu Beichen''s back getting farther and farther away from her eyes until the door blocked her sight Slightly tilted his head, Luo Xiaomi was full of doubts. "How does it feel that there is something wrong with my little uncle?" Luo Xiaomi whispered. Unfortunately, no one answered her. After tilting his mouth, Luo Xiaomi looked at the closed door again, angrily tooted his mouth, turned and left. The sound of gently pushing the door came, and Li Yunze looked up on his mobile phone Slightly wrinkled his eyebrows, Li Yunze sighed secretly, "what''s the unpleasant talk?" Although it is a doubt, it is obvious that he has confirmed it. Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Li Yunze''s face was a little dignified and wanted to say something, but in the end, he said nothing. "I''ll go back first..." Li Yunze got up. "Boss long said he would come back before your wedding." "Yes." Gu Beichen responded faintly. Li Yunze sighed and turned to leave Suddenly, he had leaned towards the door and paused, frowning slightly. Turning around, Li Yunze walked to the bedside under Gu Beichen''s doubt, leaned over and put his hand on Jian Mo''s head It''s so hot! Gu Beichen stared and strode over, "what''s the matter?" "Jian Mo has a fever..." Li Yunze''s voice was a little dignified. Chapter 402 Gu Beichen''s face was covered with haze for a moment. He leaned over and touched Jian Mo''s cheek. The burning feeling attacked his skin. "There is no equipment here..." Li Yunze frowned. "I happen to go back to the hospital." Gu Beichen nodded clearly, found a thin blanket to cover Jane Mo, grabbed her horizontally, and strode out with Li Yunze. Jian Mo subconsciously arched down Gu Beichen''s suspicions. In the bumpy steps, she twisted the center of her eyebrows uneasily, and the voice of "grace" was heard in her throat. Gu Beichen looked anxiously at Jian Mo at the bottom of his eyes and walked as smoothly as possible Li Yunze came here for a trot. The back seat is not suitable for people. Simply opened Gu Beichen''s back door. After they went in, they hurried around the front of the car to the driver''s seat. The car drove all the way to Huakang hospital. Li Yunze occasionally glanced at the back seat from the rearview mirror and gradually tightened his eyebrows. He used to remember that Jane Mo occasionally had a stomachache, but she was in good health. Although it is said that after a woman gives birth to a child, all aspects of her physical function will be affected, Jane Mo is a little strange. After all, I didn''t come back... This situation has only recently begun. "Well..." Jian Mo snorted bitterly, and subconsciously grabbed Gu Beichen''s clothes with her small hand. Her lips were chirping, as if she was very uncomfortable. Gu Beichen hugged her tightly and stroked her back with his big palm, trying to make her more stable. The temperature on Jian Mo''s body is getting higher and higher. Even if he is separated from his clothes, Gu Beichen can feel that hot feeling. Li Yunze looked in the weak light from the rearview mirror. Jian Mo''s face was already red The foot pressing the accelerator put down and stepped on it again, and the car "swished" across the road in the uninhabited suburbs late at night. "Squeak -" The harsh sound of brakes echoed in the quiet hospital parking lot at night, waking up some confused personnel on duty. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo in his arms and strode to the hospital with Li Yunze "All the tests will be done today!" Li Yunze said anxiously. "Yes." Gu Beichen''s voice was serious and powerful. Li Yunze first gave Jane Mo a basic examination, but when she came all the way, Jane Mo had a fever of 40 degrees He can guarantee that when he was at the manor, Jane Mo had just passed 38 degrees at most! Without giving Gu Beichen his concerns, Li Yunze just wanted to do an emergency cooling treatment for Jian mo. After being busy, it''s already past midnight "It has begun to cool down..." Li Yunze said, looking at the temperature displayed on the thermometer. Gu Beichen was silent. It should be said that since he entered the hospital, he didn''t say a word except to respond to Li Yunze''s "grace" from beginning to end. Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen with some worry. This feeling is really terrible Because, let him have the seed to return to that year, when the Dragon owl just saved Beichen. "Beichen..." Li Yunze tried to comfort him. "Illness is normal, especially after women have children." "Mo''er''s body is wrong, isn''t it?" Gu Beichen stared at Li Yunze and asked. Li Yunze frowned and didn''t know how to explain. The last test of Jianmo''s blood was indeed routine... However, there was something wrong with Jianmo''s sudden dizziness and high fever. Most importantly, it took him up to an hour from the manor to the hospital. Jane Mo''s temperature rose too strangely "After the body temperature drops to the normal temperature, do a comprehensive penetration inspection..." Li Yunze''s voice is also a little dignified. "After all, worry is just worry, which can''t be used as a basis." Gu Beichen nodded slightly. "I''ll get something to eat..." Li Yunze said. After looking at Beichen with worry, he turned and left the ward. In the evening, when we went to dinner, something like that happened again. Neither of us cared about eating. To take care of others, you must first take good care of yourself. ¡­¡­ Adrian concert hall. Su Jun left his fingers and scratched the black-and-white keys of the piano. The pleasant emotional music filled his heart with a touch of sadness... He was particularly sad in the empty concert hall. He thought he could replace foam with others. However, tonight, when his lips inadvertently touch, even if it is an accident, he has clearly understood that he can''t let go. A harsh sound of "bang" crossed the empty concert hall, and Su Jun''s anxious palms pressed on the keys. Self mockery crossed the corner of his mouth. What happened to him Seeing Mo Mo''s happiness should be his greatest happiness Although there is no first come first served in love, he lost the opportunity and was destined to be just a passer-by in Mo Mo''s life Su Junli raised his hand and the piano made a dissatisfied sound. Slowly got up, Su Junli walked to the edge of the stage and sat down. Looking at the empty auditorium, his soft eyes finally caught sadness. Four years, he always wasted As Xiao Jie said, he lost in not being strong enough. The night in Los Angeles seems calm, but the Internet is full of gunsmoke and jubilation. People don''t need the truth. Often they just need to seek stimulation and the source of adjustment. By the lakeside of Los Angeles, Chu Zixiao stood by the river with his hands in his pockets. Looking at the night light reflected on the dark river, his handsome face was completely cold. When the "buzzing" mobile phone vibrated, Chu Zixiao narrowed his eyes and took out his mobile phone. When he saw the number, he frowned first. Endure, Chu Zixiao still picked it up "Hello?" Chu Zixiao''s breath was cold. "So bad?" The sound inside came through the sound processor and became particularly treacherous late at night. Chu Zixiao stared slightly. He couldn''t say whether it was resistance or anything about the news the other party gave him by the Yujing lake last time. "You can''t grasp such a good opportunity... Now it''s time to pour your anger on me!" Chu Zixiao stared and didn''t speak. "The boss said, give you another chance. If you can''t get Jane Mo this time... Ha ha, it seems that you really have no fate with her." "What do you mean?" Chu Zixiao''s voice showed an unknown tension. "It means that the boss wants you to be with Jane mo... If this is not what you want, our conversation today is unnecessary." Chu Zixiao''s breath began to become rapid, and the psychology of being controlled by the unknown showed resistance. However, because it is about Jian Mo, Chu Zixiao gradually lost himself "Can he have a way?" Chu Zixiao sneered and asked with his last reason. Mechanical laughter came, and then the cold voice said sarcastically, "if you want, then... It''s still the villa where you got the information. It''s 12 noon tomorrow." Chapter 403 The next day, the sun still rose in Los Angeles. After a night of precipitation, early in the morning, Los Angeles, whether paper media, audio media or online media, was dominated by grandma Gu''s 85 year old birthday last night. The manuscript written by Huaye exaggerates how grandma Gu appeared with Gu Beichen and Jian mo. From the recognition of Gu''s parents to the opening dance of Gu Beichen and Jian mo... The hot tango, the whole manuscript writes all the details properly. At the end of tango, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo held up a perfect picture and soon set off a "boom" of licking the screen in Los Angeles. However, under such an upsurge, there are naturally a lot of cold water. A photo of Su Junli and Jian Mo "forgetting" kissing began to spread in the private social circle Even, some people dug out the news about Jian Mo and Su Jun''s departure from the past. Someone scolded Jane Mo, ate her mouth and stared at the in the pot. Some people say that all the women in the world are dead. These men only see one Jane mo It''s nothing. I don''t know who it is. I released a group of photos of Jian Mo falling in love with Chu Zixiao during his stay in Luoyang University, with words It almost crushed the appearance of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, as well as the "kiss" photos of Jian Mo and Su Junli. For a time, Los Angeles was full of wind and rain Gu Beichen''s uncle robbed his nephew''s girlfriend. Such remarks are as crazy as locusts crossing the border. Even if the emperor, Huaye and Xie Haitian deal with the tripartite media together, there is no way to suppress them. Looking at the headlines on the mobile phone at night, I looked depressed. "How do you feel that sister Mo and President Gu are suffering so much?" Duzui said to the evening, "it''s time for sister Mo to ''come through all the hardships and joys'' last night. Why did so many things happen?" Xiangwan is a younger sister who is two years later than Jian mo. she is the one who knows "a lot" about Jian Mo and Chu Zixiao in Xiangyu When Chu Zixiao came back, he found Jianmo design law firm and several old people in the design department. They also watched their "gossip" come. Now at this juncture, such a scandal has been revealed. It is true that everyone is sad. "Who, so full!" Mu Xiaoran angrily threw his mobile phone on the table. "How people fall in love is none of their business?" Mo Xiaoya sighed, "this is the sadness of public figures." Watching the news at night, I feel a little powerless. At first, she also registered her vest and scolded those jealous people, but... Gradually, her hands couldn''t resist the enemies, and she retreated. Things outside are crazy. People feel that they are "busy" early in the morning. In Huakang hospital, Gu Beichen stands outside the examination room indifferently and waits quietly. The elevator arrived with a "Ding" sound. Xiao Jing came out at the moment when the door opened, looked left and right, and then walked in the direction of Gu Beichen. "Chen Shao, I found..." Xiao Jing said. Gu Beichen looked at the closed door of the eye examination room, "where are the people?" "Xiao Nan took people to devil''s kiss first." Xiao Jing said. Gu Beichen''s thin lips showed a touch of cold hiss, and the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly into a gap "Where did Ding Dang come from?" Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing. "Everyone who knows the relationship between Mo''er and Zixiao in Luoda should know what the consequences will be if it is released at this time." Xiao Jing also frowned. At the right time, Xiao Jing''s phone rang. He took it out and saw that it was Xiao Nan''s and picked it up. "Sister, what''s the situation?" "Someone sent it to her mailbox..." Xiao Nan played with a sharp dagger in her hand and looked at Ding Dang''s bloody face frightened by cosmetic surgery. "I asked Xiaoqiang to check the path. The other party was an expert. Xiaoqiang said there was nothing he could do." Master again! This time, it''s the third time Who is behind the scenes? Xiao Jing hung up the phone and conveyed what Xiao Nan said to Gu Beichen. His face was dignified, "Chen Shao, do you think it would be..." He didn''t dare to go on. However, under the current situation of Jian Mo, there are so many things... And the other party is the person that brother Xiao can''t control at the first time. It''s hard for him not to think about Mo palace. Gu Beichen''s cold face was already cloudy. He narrowed his eyes slightly, and his ink pupil looked at the closed door of the examination room. Mo''er didn''t get rid of his high fever until about 4 a.m. in the morning, a circle of small bubbles were burned out on his mouth, which made him feel distressed. Li Yunze personally led the expert group temporarily established by Huakang hospital to give Jian Mo a comprehensive physical examination. It has been three hours and there is no result. Feeling inexplicably depressed and anxious, Gu Beichen tried to suppress his crazy thoughts, coldly took out his mobile phone and dialed Chen Xuan "Just wanted to call you, you called..." Chen Xuan''s voice came while the phone was connected. Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned, "how?" "Grandpa just sent me the message over there last night." Chen Xuan said, "I heard that Shi Shaoqin was injured, so the Mo palace began civil strife... He has been checking and balancing this matter there recently." "OK?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Chen Xuan shrugged. "It should be certain... This message will not be wrong." Gu Beichen not only didn''t breathe a sigh of relief, but his mood became more and more dignified, "thank you." "Remember what you promised me..." Chen Xuan said hurriedly. "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered the voice indifferently and hung up the phone. Chen Xuan listened to the voice of "dududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududu "OK, Mr. Chen!" ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen stood outside the inspection room with his hands in his pockets, ignoring the wind and rain of the outside media. "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jingning asked. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed and slowly opened his mouth: "maybe we are in the wrong direction..." Whether it''s him, Xiao Jing or even Yunze, the first reaction of everyone in this situation is... Whether Shi Shaoqin is making trouble. But obviously, they are going in the wrong direction. Or... From beginning to end, the second uncle is making trouble. It was the second uncle who sent him to Shi Shaoqin... Didn''t he? Even though I don''t know what Shi Shaoqin did to him, it''s not impossible to guide him to think about Shi Shaoqin! Just Mo''er''s body If Shi Shaoqin didn''t make trouble behind his back, isn''t it Mo''er''s body that really has a problem? In the staring room, the door of the examination room was opened. Gu Beichen didn''t move. He just looked at Li Yunze coming out and asked, "what''s the result?" Chapter 404 Li Yunze sighed and said solemnly, "the potassium element in Jian Mo''s body is very high, which is the main reason that directly affects high fever and dizziness..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "Mo''er doesn''t have a disease like hypertension..." "Normal people have super high potassium, which will also happen..." Li Yunze said, frowning more tightly. He is a doctor, and he knows clearly that Jane''s body is not what is hypertension or diabetes. Even if the potassium element is ultra-high, it is impossible to have a high fever to 40 degrees, or even dizziness. However, everything that should be checked has been checked and there is no problem This situation makes Li Yunze very weak and hesitant. "Where''s Mo''er?" Gu Beichen spoke and could not hear any emotion in his voice. "There are some small details to deal with and they will come out in a moment..." Li Yunze said heavily. "Now there is no serious physical problem. I can only say it. It''s best to come and check once a month." Gu Beichen nodded slightly, and his cold face was dignified. Jane Mo''s face was a little pale, but she was unhealthy red. A circle of bubbles burned on her mouth and dry white skin. Gu Beichen took a cotton swab and dipped it in water to moisten her. He moved gently for fear of hurting her. "I can..." said Jane Mo in a gloomy voice. Gu Beichen couldn''t help tightening his eyebrows when listening to such a voice. Jane Mo originally wanted to comfort Gu Beichen, but she burned her throat and made an ugly voice. She was about to cry Some discouraged drooped their shoulders, and Jane moo pulled the corners of her mouth. Because there were blisters, there was some pain between closing, "Yunze also said that my body is really OK..." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but just stared at Jian Mo quietly. "I guess I ate too much banana pie last night... And drank a large glass of banana juice!" Jane Mo said hoarsely, "I''ll check what contains more potassium later and touch less in the future." "Mo''er, are you tired?" Gu Beichen suddenly asked. "Well?" Jane was stunned. Gu Beichen''s thick palm gently stroked Jian Mo''s cheek, "are you tired with me?" The low voice was tinged with an uncertain gloom. Whether it''s a two-year contract marriage, Gu Beichen is as evil as a wolf. Or now when two people are together, it hurts so much that they love each other Jane Mo has never seen such an insecure Gu Beichen. "Why do you ask me that?" Jane Mo''s nerves tightened all over her body, and she didn''t care about her body. Because of the astringent pain after the high fever, she suddenly bounced and sat up. "Gu Beichen, don''t tell me you''re tired..." like the little beast preparing for battle, Jane Mo''s hair stood up. Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo slightly and didn''t speak... Deep in the eagle''s eyes, there was a sadness that Jian Mo couldn''t see. Jane Mo began to feel uneasy. She stared and shouted hoarsely, "Gu Beichen, if you dare to seduce me and tell us it''s inappropriate, I must... Must... Must..." Jane Mo said several "must" in succession, but there was no "must", so she came. Finally, because I was in a hurry, I turned my face red "How must it be?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s worried appearance, sighed, and rubbed Jian Mo''s small hand with his big palm. Jane Mo''s anxious eyes were red, but in an instant, a thin layer of water mist was dense in the fundus of her eyes. "How do I know?" Jian Mo''s nose became sour and astringent. "If you feel tired, can I be shameless?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo sadly Why does he feel tired? He just doesn''t know how to face the fact that his mother killed her father If Mo''er knew about it, how would she face him? No matter how hard it is, can it be harder than her? "Gu Beichen, the game is not played like this..." a choking voice came. Jane Mo tried to bear it, but when her tears blurred her sight, she was at a loss, "you can''t provoke me in turn and say that you''re tired with me... How can you?" Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo in his arms and held her tightly, but he didn''t say anything. Jane Mo was afraid. She bit her lips and sucked her nose... But she couldn''t help crying. "Mo''er, you have to bear too much when you are with me..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes screwed tightly, "are you sure you can always go on with me firmly?" "You''re not me," cried Jane Mo, even though her voice was hoarse. "How do you know I''m not firm? How do you know I''m tired?" Because I can see Gu Beichen thought silently, gently let go of Jian Mo and looked at the tears on her cheeks. The position of her heart was like being strangled by someone holding a rope. Jane Mo is strong. He seldom sees her cry so sad Even if it was four years ago, Zixiao''s sadness was not as heartbreaking as it is now. "Mo''er..." "Don''t say anything?" Jane Mo shook her head sadly. "I just want to know... Is it because of the separation between Su Jun and me last night?" Gu Beichen frowned in an instant, "since I believe you, I won''t doubt you." "Do I have any terminal disease?" Jane asked again. "What are you talking about?" Gu Beichen was a little angry. Jane Mo sniffed, "this is how TV plays. If you get a terminal illness, you will force the other party to leave..." "Wrong?" Jian Mo suddenly mumbled his nose and said, his face was not strong under the previous self-confidence, and some were only dull and cute under the blurred tears, "I should have forced you to leave..." "..." Gu Beichen was bewildered by Jian mo. He pressed his handsome face, gently kissed the tears on Jian Mo''s face with thin lips, and said in a dark voice, "I won''t force you to leave, and I don''t want you to leave... Just, Mo''er, I can''t control some things, do you understand?" "But you can control your firmness to me..." Jane Mo roared, "just as I can''t control falling in love with you, but I can control my firmness to believe you, and even never separate from you." The hoarse words came through the sound of crying, and each word pierced Gu Beichen''s heart like a needle. How extravagant are you now? Gu Beichen knows how deep the pain will be in the future. However, he is greedy Even if the last pain made each other unable to bear, he was unwilling to let go at this moment. Ask her, just hope she let go Because he doesn''t want to say "break up", how cruel is it for him? Fleeing from Shi Shaoqin, he thought he had no desire and no desire in his life Even if he was moved by Shen Chu, even if everyone thought he was normal, his heart was always empty. Now it is filled with a simple foam. If it is forcibly pulled away, isn''t God merciless to him? Gu Beichen''s thin lips covered Jian Mo''s blistered lips, and he didn''t dare to use force. He just covered them gently. His voice was low and the mother and child said magnetically: "in this life, I will never be the one who turns around first..." Chapter 405 Chu Zixiao stopped at the roadside in front of the white building and looked at the villa. His sight became dark. Get off and walk to the villa The reception was still the middle-aged woman last time. However, Chu Zixiao was not allowed to go to the villa this time, but gave him a small handbag at the door. Chu Zixiao frowned slightly and was puzzled. "Someone will call you later..." the middle-aged woman said calmly. Chu Zixiao stared at her deeply. Without saying anything, he took his bag and got on the car. After getting on the bus, he opened it. There was a bottle of medicine similar to vitamins. When he opened it, there were several pills in it. With a slight frown, Chu Zixiao saw that there was nothing else in the handbag and felt that the man behind him was really making a mystery. Looking at the white villa again, Chu Zixiao drove the car and turned around to leave On the way, the car phone rang. Pressing the answer button, Chu Zixiao simply stopped the car to the roadside. "Got it?" The harsh sound of machinery came. "How many vitamins?" Chu Zixiao asked coldly. "Don''t underestimate those vitamins..." the mechanical voice smiled. "When the key time comes, you will understand its usefulness." "What do you mean?" Chu Zixiao frowned. "Give Jane Mo a chance to eat one first..." "For Mo Mo?" Chu Zixiao immediately looked cold. "I''m sorry, I''m afraid I let you down..." he snorted coldly, "who knows what you are?" "Don''t worry, I can assure you that it won''t do any harm..." "Why should I trust you?" Chu Zixiao said coldly, "for a behind the scenes manipulator, it seems that you have no credibility with me." The mechanical laughter came, and the other party didn''t seem surprised. Chu Zixiao thought, "there are five in total. Jian Mo''s body only needs three or four. You can find a trusted institution to test the composition of the medicine..." Chu Zixiao coagulated his eyes, and the other party said so. Obviously, he was not afraid at all. "You asked me to come here today just for this medicine?" Chu Zixiao asked with staring eyes. "Otherwise?" The other party said, "when a person is ill, his heart is the most vulnerable... Chu Zixiao, I''ll give you the opportunity again. Whether you use it or not is your problem." "Wait!" Chu Zixiao suddenly said, "what do you mean when a person is sick? When is Momo sick?" "I added potassium to her wine last night..." the man said bluntly, "of course, there is a Li Yunze around Gu Beichen. How about you?" Chu Zixiao instantly changed his face. "Who are you? Why did you apply medicine to Mo Mo?" The man smiled, "just think I''m not satisfied that Jian Mo and Gu Beichen are together..." after a pause, he said, "you can see what happens next. You can choose to use this opportunity to force Gu Beichen to let go of Jian Mo, and you can also give me up." "Of course... You have to know who I am first!" The man smiled strangely, "bye." Before Chu Zixiao could say anything more, the man had already hung up. Chu Zixiao''s face turned blue and white when the busy tone of "Dudu Dudu" hung up came from the car phone. As if the two ends of the balance kept tearing his nerves, he fell into his established world more and more Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window with his hands in his pockets, and the closed curtain had only a gap in the middle. The sun hit his shoulder from the gap. It was warm but cold. Gu muhuai, Jian Heng, Chu Zixiao... Even Shen Chu, are his invisible hands. Chen, before you begin to doubt me, I have calculated everyone. How can you see through the game so quickly? Next... I want to see if you are still as cruel to yourself as you were in those years. Jue Xin, Jue Qing, Jue Nian Shi Shaoqin put a faint smile on his mouth, took out his mobile phone and dialed Jian Mo''s number. The sweet piano music broke the sadness in the ward. Jian Mo''s eyes are red. Looking at Gu Beichen, she is rare to lose her previous self-confidence and shows her tender anger and pity under the soft waxy. Gu Beichen gently kissed Jian Mo on the forehead, and then took the handbag Xiao Jing took from the manor on the sofa. Turn it on, take out your cell phone Show customer group Shao Shi! He handed Jian Mo his mobile phone, but he didn''t expect that the call would be made by Shi Shaoqin What''s more, when a person goes crazy, his thinking can''t be understood by ordinary people at all. Gu Beichen left the ward and planned to ask the nurse for two small ice bags. Jane Mo''s eyes are not enough. I''m afraid they will swell. Jian Mo took a deep breath, calmed his mood, and then answered the phone, "Hello, Mr. Shao..." Shi Shaoqin''s soft voice came, "listen to the voice... Is it uncomfortable?" Jian Mo didn''t expect Shi Shaoqin to be so sensitive. "I have a cold..." she swallowed, but her throat was burning. "Did you see a doctor?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice clearly showed some concern. Jane Mo was a little embarrassed, "I''m in the hospital now..." "It seems that I''m not suitable to talk about the following things." Shi Shaoqin said with a smile. "Do you want to ask about the design progress?" Jian Mo said hurriedly, "sorry, recently because of the project in hand and grandma''s birthday party... So..." "No!" Shi Shaoqin said, "I want to say that I saw the news today. As a public figure, there will inevitably be some negative things. You should strengthen your heart to your lover." Jane Mo was very moved. Xu was because she had the same idea of design and was willing to pay for her lover. Hearing him say so, her nose suddenly became sour again. "Mr. Shao, have you ever been unfaithful to your lover?" Jane Mo asked, probably because the emotion just affected her sensibility at the moment. Maybe she subconsciously took Shaoshi as her confidant. "There have been......" Shi Shaoqin Feng''s eyes narrowed slightly. "Because of fear, I hesitate... Just because I love you too much!" Jian Mo''s heart was instantly touched. She didn''t know whether Gu Beichen felt the same as Shao Shi when he just asked her like that "Why do you hesitate?" Jane Mo doesn''t understand. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes deepened, "because I''m not sure whether the other party will go hand in hand with himself under any circumstances, possibly an enemy, or various unknown obstacles..." Jane Mo''s heart was hit hard. I don''t know why, she subconsciously felt that what Shaoshi said was what Gu Beichen thought Such a feeling made her unable to speak clearly. "If you are ill, don''t think about it..." Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes. "When you are well, if you still have something you don''t understand, you can call me..." Chapter 406 "Thank you!" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, and her previous heart was blocked. She became a little relieved because of Shi Shaoqin''s words. Gu Beichen she knew was so strong and domineering that she forgot that no matter how strong people are, they are always confused Gu Beichen''s uncertainty is just because her performance is not as firm as he wants. Heart to heart, she really doesn''t pay as much as Gu Beichen, does she? "Have a good rest. I hope to see your design earlier!" Shi Shaoqin''s gentle words came with a comfortable smile, "goodbye!" "Goodbye..." Jane Mo said with a smile. At the same time, the door was pushed open and Gu Beichen came in. Jane Mo just hung up the phone and looked at Gu Beichen The coincidence of this time made her feel guilty of being a thief. Of course, this guilty heart is because Gu Beichen talked with Shao Shi Gu Beichen saw Jian Mo''s awkward appearance, sat down by the hospital bed and asked softly, "what''s the matter?" Jane Mo quickly shook her head, "that''s what the customer asked me to design..." Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "you don''t have to explain things at work to me." He motioned slightly, "lie down!" "Why?" Jian Mo''s first reaction was to guard and look at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen looked at her and said, "in broad daylight, it''s a hospital again. What can I do to you?" He shook his head reluctantly, "I''ll apply your eyes." Jane froth''s face turned red with a ''Teng''. She stared angrily at Beichen. She was suppressed by him every minute, and her IQ was about to collapse. Lie down and close your eyes Gu Beichen took out the spoon from the middle of the ice bag and gently put it on Jian Mo''s eyes. "Ah Chen..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered lightly. Jane moru her lower lip, because it was full of blisters, some astringent, "will the milk bag see the news?" "No..." Gu Beichen''s voice was very light, but it was firm. "Why?" Jane Mo frowned, "milk bag has the habit of surfing the Internet." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and said calmly, "after things came out last night, I asked Xiao Jing to block the telephone signals and network signals near Spencer... Except for fixed lines, mobile phones and networks can''t be used." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and stopped talking. She felt that with Gu Beichen around, she didn''t seem to need IQ... Because this man would handle everything. ¡­¡­ After Shi Shaoqin hung up Jianmo''s phone, he stood in front of the window. From the gap, I looked at the traffic on the street not far away, and the good-looking corners of my lips slightly drew a shallow smile. Mosen stood quietly in the corner. Because of the angle of light and darkness, he saw the expression on Shi Shaoqin''s face. He doesn''t understand Qin Shao''s current game and how to play it. Mingming hopes that Jian Mo and Gu Beichen will be separated... However, on the one hand, they are doing so, on the other hand, they are making Jian Mo more firm in this relationship. "Strange?" Shi Shaoqin''s quiet and indifferent voice suddenly remembered. Mosen''s heart suddenly shook and looked at Shi Shaoqin and didn''t speak. Shi Shaoqin glanced at Mosen, then coldly took back his eyes and rarely explained to him in a good mood, "the more determined Jian Mo is to Chen now, the more wonderful her reaction will be when she is pushed away by him." Morson''s heart subconsciously raised it "The more wonderful Jian Mo is..." Shi Shaoqin paused with a thin smile at the corner of his mouth, and then said slowly, "the heart of that Chen will only hurt more." Morson''s throat rolled involuntarily, and the swallowing movement was particularly slow and difficult He should not be surprised that Qin Shao''s game has always been a rhythm of torture to madness. How can he doubt Qin Shao''s kindness this time? Mosen subconsciously swallowed again, looked down, and thought about whether to respond to Shi Shaoqin. Before he could figure it out, Shi Shaoqin''s mobile phone shook. Mosen looked at it and saw that it was Shi juechi. He hurried forward, "Qin Shao, Jueshi''s phone." Shi Shaoqin''s indifferent eyebrows and eyes softened obviously when he heard that it was Shi Juxi. Took the phone and picked it up, "huh?" "Our birthday is coming soon. Will you spend it with me this year?" Shi juechi''s voice came with a smile. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, "but!" "It seems that Chi is not surprised to answer him, but it seems that he is just another person......" "Juxi!" "It doesn''t matter..." Shi juechi said with a smile. "I have two birthdays alone. It''s the same." Shi Shaoqin looked cold. "What do you want?" Listening to Shi Shaoqin''s awkward voice, Shi juechi''s smile deepened a little. The genial is like the sunshine, "let''s have a trip... Shaoqin, I want to go out for a walk." "Except Los Angeles, the rest is up to you..." Shi Shaoqin said without hesitation. Shi juechi frowned slightly, "do you just don''t want to spend your birthday with me?" "No..." Shi Shaoqin was finally angry by Shi Juxi''s tone. "Well, I''ll tease you!" Shi juechi smiled, "I''m going to the Matterhorn GLACIER!" "No!" Shi Shaoqin immediately refused, "the temperature there is not suitable for your body." Shi Jue Chi sighed, "I knew you wouldn''t agree... Then I''d better stay in Mo palace!" Listening to the loss in Shi juechi''s tone, Shi Shaoqin knew that he was forcing himself, but he could only let the twin brother force him Because they are fraternal twins, Shi juechi has been ignored since childhood Shi Shaoqin always believed that he took away all the beauty of his brother, which is why this happened! "Come to Los Angeles!" Shi Shaoqin finally compromised. "Forget it, I won''t go over..." Shi juechi sighed softly. "I''ll go over and delay you in doing things." "Just one day." Shi Shaoqin said in a voice, "go back when you''re finished." Shi juechi was silent, and finally seemed to be very reluctant to "grace". After hanging up the phone, Shi juechi breathed out secretly For Shaoqin''s thinking, he needs to think about all his reactions many days in advance, even all the time, in order to achieve his goal of letting himself go to Los Angeles Shi juechi looked at the pills similar to vitamins in the vessel in front of him. With a deep sigh, he got up to take the medicine bottle and put in disposable gloves. He can ignore the battle between Shaoqin and Gu Beichen, but he doesn''t want to see a woman involved Shi Shaoqin hung up Shi juechi''s phone and rang again within two minutes. He looked down and then picked up "Qin Shao," a dignified voice came from the other end of the phone, "silenceds is missing three!" As soon as Shi Shaoqin heard this, his narrow Phoenix eyes narrowed slowly Chapter 407 Jane Mo left the hospital in the afternoon because she didn''t want Gu Beichen to worry about her, so she didn''t go to the company. Fortunately, the next day is the weekend. You can rest at home for two days Looking at myself in the mirror, the blisters in my mouth are particularly spectacular. Jane Moshen sighed. She hasn''t been so sick since she was a child. "Little grandma, have some soup..." aunt Luo said with a smile when she saw Jane Mo coming downstairs. "It''s good for tonifying blood and reducing fire." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, even though she had no appetite for bitterness in her mouth, she still couldn''t bear to brush aunt Luo''s kindness. Only if he doesn''t act willfully, let Gu Beichen rest assured... He may not have the kind of hesitation Shaoshi said. "Aunt Luo, I''ll cook in the evening..." Jane Mo said while drinking soup. Aunt Luo looked at Jian Mo''s face and didn''t directly refuse. She just said, "you''re still ill. Will Chen Shao be infected?" Jane Mo was stunned and then smiled, "yes... Forget it." Aunt Luo smiled and nodded, "wait, young lady, go and have a rest first..." "It doesn''t seem to work..." Jane Mo winked playfully. "People are resting, but the project doesn''t wait." Aunt Luo shook her head with a deep sigh. "You and Chen Shao are workaholics and don''t let go of themselves when they are ill." Jian mo ''hee hee'' smiled and saw that Aunt Luo had begun to take away the furnishings on the table and was still talking "The study is so comfortable. Why do you like to design on the dining table?" Jane Mo looked at Aunt Luo and smiled sweetly at the corners of her mouth Mother used to be like this. She helped her clean the table while nagging... It''s a great feeling! After Jane Mo finished eating, she went to get the government project to do it I don''t know if it''s because of the high fever the night before. Jane Mo has no inspiration at all, and her whole head is also drowsy. Looking at the unsatisfied sketches, Jane Mo sighed and simply sobered her head. After collecting things and putting them into her study, she went for a walk in the villa yard. The sound of "Di" came and a short breath arrived. Jian Mo raised her hand and opened the screen. Seeing that it was Gu Beichen''s, a smile filled the corners of her mouth. She picked up her mobile phone and took a selfie, then replied with the picture: I''m walking in the yard. The sun is very comfortable at this time. Gu Beichen saw that Jian Mo was in a much better spirit, so he was a little relieved, and then continued to listen to the executives, looking at him suspiciously while reporting the relevant contents of the meeting. Jane Mo was a little tired after walking for a while, so she sat down on the bench under the shade of the tree. The voice of the text message came again. Jian Mo thought it was Gu Beichen''s and opened it with a smile... It was sent by Li Xiaoyue, a picture of a two-dimensional code that looked irregular. With a slight frown, Li Xiaoyue''s phone has called Then he put it in his ear and listened to Li Xiaoyue ask, "girl, have you received the QR code?" "Are you sure that''s a QR code?" Jane Mo is a student of design and drawing. She can''t stand such pictures. "Why are you so hoarse?" Li Xiaoyue didn''t know about Jian Mo''s high fever. She just sent a text message to Jian mo after the news came out. She was so comforted that she couldn''t help frowning when she heard her speak. "I got angry and feverish by public opinion..." Jane Mo joked. Li Xiaoyue rolled her eyes. "Shouldn''t we become stronger and stronger under the envy, jealousy and hatred of others? Why did you return alive? Is there a big problem?" The last sentence is the point. "The fever has gone down, that is, the inflammation of the flat conductor is severe..." Jian Mo has become a habit to comfort Li Xiaoyue''s off-line way. "Forget it, I don''t have to worry... Your Gu is more worried than anyone else." Li Xiaoyue said jokingly. Jane Mo chuckled, "what does that QR code mean?" "Do you think children are smart now? Criminal codes use QR codes..." Li Xiaoyue sighed when she said this. "The most important thing is that the QR code you see is not bad... But because it is double-layer, it can be separated only by computer technology analysis, and then combined into the information you want to transmit..." Jane Mo was slightly stunned. "It''s too talented." "Yes..." Li Xiaoyue raised her eyebrows. "There is a child involved in the military high-level, and this matter will be suppressed. How to pass the message is just to say in code language... You learn to design and draw pictures, and see if you can unlock this QR code?" Jane Mo was very interested in these things, and Li Xiaoyue chose a QR code for several children to talk about girls and gave it to her. "Good!" Jane Mo suddenly became interested, "but will it be bad?" "I''ll give you this picture only when it''s all right..." Li Xiaoyue laughed vaguely. "You can test your smart president Gu later... Then you can also play with milk bags to save you from saying that your IQ is not enough." Jane Mo was a little angry. "My Gu is Albert''s top student. I guess he draws higher than me..." "People have weaknesses!" "Also..." Jane Mo smiled. "You can try it later. It''s good to be a love password." As she spoke, she chatted and walked to the villa. "Well, I have something to deal with here. You can study it slowly..." Li Xiaoyue and the lawyer of the law firm waved their hands and motioned, "when the case in my hand is handled, I''ll have dinner with you." "Well, good!" Jane answered, opened the door and entered the room. After hanging up the phone and changing shoes, Jane Mo walked to the table However, when she saw the empty table, Jane Mo frowned "Where''s my stuff?" After Jane mured, she just saw aunt Luo coming out of the kitchen, "aunt Luo, did you put my things away?" Aunt Luo looked at the table. "When you just went out for a walk, you received the study!" "..." Jane Mo frowned and looked blankly, "isn''t it?" Why doesn''t she remember at all? Aunt Luo kindly smiled and scolded and said, "you... Have a fever and lose your memory." Jane Mo was a little embarrassed and scratched her hair. "It seems that there is a problem with burning..." she came forward and circled aunt Luo''s arm. "Aunt Luo, it seems that you have to get me some brain tonic... Otherwise, what if you forget ah Chen later?" "Nonsense!" Aunt Luo said angrily, "it''s not really amnesia." Jane Mo grinned, kissed aunt Luo on the face, and went upstairs to print out the QR code map given to her by Li Xiaoyue However, when she went up the stairs and walked up step by step, she couldn''t remember. She had the memory of packing things and putting them in her study. Pushing open the door of the study, Jane Mo looked at the things she designed were indeed on the wide desk, and her eyebrows became more and more wrinkled and tight It was only less than an hour before and after. Why didn''t she remember at all? Even the memory of this event seems to be blank Chapter 408 One weekend, the news heat among Gu Beichen, Jian Mo and Su Junli didn''t cool at all. In addition to the press release of Huaye and the pressure of the Su family on the media, the "kiss" photos of Su Junli and Jian Mo have been invisible to the public and the Internet except for private communication Luo Xiaomi worked overtime on weekends because of guilt. In the publication published on Monday, he wrote a lot about grandma Gu''s birthday banquet. In fact, he wanted to launch the fact that Gu Beichen and Jian Mo came to Gu''s house. The cover of the magazine is a picture of the kiss after Gu Beichen and Jian Mo''s Tango The title is ambiguous. "Gu Beichen, Jian Mo and Gu''s family have a longevity banquet and dance... A tango is the integration of body and soul!" Xiang night held his hands against his chin and looked intoxicated. "The combination of handsome men and beautiful women makes each picture pleasing to the eyes!" Mu Xiaoran took the magazine and looked at the report written by Luo Xiaomi. The corners of his mouth also said with a smile: "I think this reporter writes better than Huaye''s full manuscript!" "Yes, yes, that''s official. It''s a personal tracking..." Xiang night hurriedly said, "you don''t know. The boss of the magazine stall said that she took three times more than usual today, and it''s not enough to sell." Mo Xiaoya came over with water, looked at the cover of the magazine and said, "I just want to know if there is an infield video... I don''t know if Mo Mo can dance tango?" For Gu Beichen''s rich family, social dance and so on, it is a compulsory course from small to large Jane will tango, we are still a little surprised. "Your gossip object came back from general manager Yu''s office..." Sun Ke suddenly stood at the door and said. Xiangwan and mu Xiaoran''s eyes lit up in an instant. They hurried to Jian Mo''s office with a magazine Mo Xiaoya shook her head. "I''ve found gossip companions this evening." Sun Ke smiled, shrugged and said, "by the way, just Momo said, President Gu invited everyone to dinner on Friday night." "Eh?" Daxiong''s eyes lit up, "President Gu, is this to please my mother''s family?" Sun Ke shrugged again. "On Friday, you can ask President Gu..." People in the large office area looked at each other and said that none of them were jealous. It was all a lie. Jane is talented and beautiful Nowadays, even if you marry Gao Fu and Shuai, you don''t have a sad history of rich families. Your husband loves her and dotes on her, which makes people feel too close to the people. When all good things are gathered on one person, there is a problem if no one is jealous. After a weekend, plus Li Yunze takes time to go to the villa to check Jane Mo every day, the blisters on her mouth have gradually disappeared It''s just that this process is a little difficult. It''s inconvenient to talk and eat. For the two curious babies Xiangwan and mu Xiaoran, Jian Mo easily dismissed them The report didn''t do much harm to her. She is not afraid of anything now... She is afraid that she and Gu Beichen will not be able to come to the end. "For this, I think it''s best to deal with it like this..." Jane Mo took the drawing pen and made fine-tuning on the sketch. Andy holds his fist and holds his chin. He looks back and forth. His blue eyes are thoughtful. Jane Mo didn''t bother him, just waiting for his opinion. "I need to make a paper film to know if it fits..." Andy finally shrugged. "OK..." Jane Mo answered and looked at the time. "Have dinner together and study the details later." ¡°OK£¡¡± Andy answered with a smile on his sunny face. However, when he saw Mo Xiaoya and Daxiong, he immediately vented his anger I think Jane Mo is challenging his fragile little heart and causing 10000 points of harm to him all the time. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao played with the medicine bottle in his hand. Deep in his sight, he had an emotion that others couldn''t understand. The knock of "Dong Dong" came, and Tang Yu came in with a file. "Uncomfortable?" Tang Yu sat down opposite Chu Zixiao and looked at the eye medicine bottle. "No..." Chu Zixiao calmly took the medicine bottle into the drawer, "what''s the matter?" Now the exposure of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo has been determined. Tang Yu thought that it is a good thing for Chu Zixiao Long pain is better than short pain. The medicine needs to be cruel. One dose is enough. Tang Yu gave the file to Chu Zixiao, "look at this..." Chu Zixiao took it in doubt and opened it... He probably looked at it first. When he saw the victim, he frowned slightly. "No answer." Chu Zixiao coldly closed the file, "whoever wants to pick it up will pick it up." "The social education institute said that this was a vicious incident. The party was suffocated in the toilet..." Tang Yu sighed, "although he is a prisoner, he also has human rights." "No!" Chu Zixiao stressed again. Tang Yu shrugged, "OK... I''ll turn to another place." With that, he got up and left Chu Zixiao''s office. Chu Zixiao lay back on the chair, his sight fell on the bookshelf with strong artistic sense on the front wall, and narrowed his sight slightly. After a while, he restrained his mind, took out his mobile phone... Called out a group of numbers and dialed out. "Professor Zhang, I''m Chu Zixiao!" Chu Zixiao said calmly, "well, I have something to trouble you." Professor Zhang was a little curious, "when are you a lawyer still in trouble with me?" He joked, "come on, what''s up?" "I opened the drawer to test the ingredients of Xiaochu''s medicine..." I want to have a bottle of Xiaochu''s medicine in my hand...... ". "What medicine?" Professor Zhang is curious. Chu Zixiao paused slightly and said, "about a case..." Listening to him, Professor Zhang didn''t ask any more, "I don''t have a class at the moment. Come if you have time." "OK, I''ll see you at school." Chu Zixiao hung up the phone and got up and walked out. "Xiao Zi?" Han Zhenzhen came in with the case and almost bumped into Chu Zixiao. "Are you going out?" "Yes!" Chu Zixiao answered and looked down at the file in Han Zhenzhen''s hand, "talk when you come back in the afternoon..." "All right!" Han Zhenzhen shrugged and watched Chu Zixiao leave. However, when his eyes fell on the medicine bottle in his hand, he couldn''t help frowning slightly "Zixiao is ill?" Han Zhenzhen murmured to himself. Tang Yu happened to pass by, "holding the medicine bottle is not necessarily sick... It may be related to the case in Zixiao''s hand recently." Han Zhenzhen glanced sideways at Tang Yu, hummed proudly, and turned to his work. Tang Yu looked innocent and looked at Lin fan, shrugged and went to one side to find the case This multi angle love is too sad! Chapter 409 Chu Zixiao drove all the way to Luoda and went to the laboratory of the medical department to find Professor Zhang. When Professor Zhang saw the medicine, he couldn''t help joking, "don''t tell me it''s vitamin pills?" Chu Zixiao smiled, "it looks like, but it still needs to be tested to know..." Professor Zhang nodded in agreement. After taking a disposable container, Professor Zhang took out a medicine and said, "the test results are estimated to take a while..." "I''ll go to our department to see the professor. Come here later." "OK..." Professor Zhang smiled and nodded. Because there was a lawsuit at home two years ago, which was represented by Chu Zixiao... Professor Zhang has always been grateful. At ordinary times, Professor Zhang will do his best as long as there is a need for Chu Zixiao''s lawsuit. As time went by, it was two hours after Professor Zhang decomposed the drug components He called Chu Zixiao, looked at the displayed data and said, "there is no special drug composition, which is similar to vitamins. People eat it without side effects." Chu Zixiao frowned slightly, "no special ingredients?" "En..." Professor Zhang said, "if you have to say anything, it will be good for patients with excessive potassium in the body. In addition, this drug is water-soluble, and the effect of water-soluble is better than that of direct eating." Chu Zixiao''s eyebrows became tighter. Although the drug giver had said this, he still had some doubts when he heard what Professor Zhang said. Is the other party just for himself and foam? Why? Chu Zixiao left Luoda with such doubts and drove back When passing the snack street near the school, he suddenly stopped the car and looked slightly The shops are still bustling. As a century old famous university, Luoda has become the favorite place for students... Once, he and Jian Mo also liked to come here to eat. Stop the car at the roadside parking space and Chu Zixiao gets off the car Dressed in a suit and leather shoes, he was a little abrupt when walking in the snack street. The students without classes cast their eyes one after another. The girls were amazed one by one, and the boys thought when they could look like such a business elite "This must be the senior brother who graduated from school. Come here to remember!" Someone said with a firm face. "I don''t know which department it is. It''s so handsome..." "You don''t know Chu Zixiao, the man of the moment in the law department?" The person at the next table answered, "in recent ten years, the law department has produced two influential figures, one mo Shaochen and one Chu Zixiao..." The voice of discussion came slowly. Chu Zixiao ignored it. He just went to a stall selling hot and dry noodles and asked for a hot and dry noodles to take out Back in the car, the hot and dry noodles filled with the aroma of sesame paste filled the narrow space in the car. "Is it delicious?" "It''s delicious..." Chu Zixiao was stunned for a moment, as if he had returned to the beginning He brought Jane Mo to eat hot and dry noodles for the first time, and the happy look on her face was still vivid. A sneer hit the corners of her mouth. Chu Zixiao narrowed her eyes slightly, suddenly opened the door, got off the car, threw the hot and dry noodles into the trash can, got on the car... Start the engine and leave. All the actions are done at one go, full of anxiety. Just after Chu Zixiao''s car left, a black car slowly drove over and stopped at the place where Chu Zixiao had originally parked. Shi Shaoqin looked through the windshield like an arrow flying away from Land Rover. He smiled slightly at the corners of his mouth, and then turned his head to look at the courtyard wall of Luoda on one side. "Drive..." Morson looked at Shi Shaoqin from the rearview mirror. "Yes!" Shi Shaoqin converged his eyes at the moment when the car started. The narrow Phoenix eyes showed a strange smile ¡­¡­ Under Li Yunze''s "forced" careful care, in less than a week, Jian Mo was very angry, her voice was not hoarse, and the marks caused by blisters on her mouth basically disappeared. It''s just that Jane Mo found one thing Her memory is getting worse and worse recently! "This is what you modified last time..." Andy looked at Jian Mo strangely with a firm face. "I told you to make paper film to see the effect first." Jian Mo looked at the modified stay wire on the sketch and frowned, "are you sure I changed it?" Andy helped his forehead, some of whom were about to cry, "I''m sure!" Jane Mo didn''t argue, because her memory is really bad recently Often, I can''t remember what I did at the last moment. Is this an incubation period of three years of pregnancy? Because I wasn''t stupid before, I''m stupid now Jane Mo was forced by her own teasing. She looked at Andy with a very hurt look and a guilty face. "She doesn''t have a good memory recently... Sorry." Andy said bitterly, "Jane, you seem to have often forgotten things lately..." "You found it..." Jane said jokingly. "I guess it''s too happy, so I''m stuck with honey." "..." Andy was immediately hurt by 10000 points. After finishing the first draft of the government project, Jian Mo and Andy convened a group, held a meeting first, and then held a small meeting with Yu Ziyun After the general direction is set, the team members will take their own responsibilities to deal with the design of their own plate, and finally integrate. "Mo Mo, won''t you go?" Seeing that Jane Mo was still in the office, Sun Ke asked strangely. Recently, Jian Mo seldom works overtime. Even if he has a job, he takes it back to do it... In its name, people with a family have to take care of their family. "President Gu is going to work overtime today. I have to deal with it a little. I''ll go after it..." Jane Mo looked up and said with a smile. "Don''t be too late..." Sun Ke said, "your body is just getting better." Jane Mo gave sun Kebi an "OK" gesture and watched her leave before continuing to draw The architectural design drawing for Shao Shi will be drawn soon... Give this to him first. There is still a break in the later construction, and she can design the interior decoration. As time goes by, the night comes and the lights are on. Neon and lights pull out the intoxication of the night. The sound of "Da" suddenly came. Just as Jane Mo got up, the drawing pen in her hand fell on the table because of dizziness for a while. She hurriedly held the table and closed her eyes to prevent her dizziness from strengthening I haven''t felt like this for several days. Why are you dizzy again? Jane Mo swallowed secretly, trying to suppress the pain. However, after the total dizziness, some disgusting feelings came up one after another, making her almost unstable. Groping for a chair to sit down, Jane Mo lay on the table, and her breath began to gasp She didn''t know what had happened to her. She was suddenly a little afraid... The dog blood plot of the TV series hit us all. What sudden discovery of incurable diseases, what rare cases have not appeared in medicine She is not afraid of death, but if she has one in case, what should ah Chen do? What about milk bags? Chapter 410 As time ticked by, the second hand turned quickly round and round. The office is quiet, and the soft desk lamp makes a large shadow area. Jane Mo fell to the ground, pale and bloodless. She just lay there motionless and lifeless. The shadow spread out on Jane Mo in a large area, which made the whole atmosphere of the office particularly treacherous. The sound of "Ding" came, and the arrival of the elevator broke the silence of the floor. Chu Zixiao copied his pocket in one hand and stood in the elevator with his briefcase in the other When I saw that it was the floor of Xiangyu design department, I frowned slightly. He''s going to another floor to talk to the client about the case. Why did he press here? Thinking about the room, the elevator door wants to close. Chu Zixiao hurried forward. When the elevator door opened again, the man walked out Chu Zixiao didn''t know what psychology, so he stood in the corridor. He laughed at himself and looked sideways... It fell on the other side of Jian Mo''s office. Slightly frowned, Chu Zixiao didn''t expect that the light in Jian Mo''s office was on There was joy in the bottom of his eyes, and Chu Zixiao strode over... But when he saw that only the light was on and no one was there, a burst of loss crossed his heart. Self mockery once again filled the corners of his mouth, Chu Zixiao sighed secretly, and his sight turned around Suddenly! Chu Zixiao''s sight suddenly stagnated. Before he could think it over, he had pushed open the glass door, "foam?" After shouting, Chu Zixiao picked up Jian Mo without much thought... And strode out. Down the first floor, Chu Zixiao walked to his car Put Jian Mo on the co pilot and fasten his seat belt. Chu Zixiao turned to the driver''s seat, started the car and left. "Was that Miss Jane just now?" The bodyguard asked with a slight frown. The angle of the two is not clear who Chu Zixiao is holding. Due to the night light, the clothes are not very real. "I''ll go with you. Go up and have a look. I''ll call you later..." the bodyguard man said. "Good!" The bodyguard woman answered, opened the door and got out of the car. The female bodyguard went up the stairs to the design department after she got off the elevator on the first floor below the Xiangyu design department. Looking at the light in the office, she was not at ease. She walked next to the wall Within sight is the back of "Jian Mo", who is playing with a set of paper film. The bodyguard woman felt relieved and turned away. However, when the figure just entered the staircase, "Jian Mo" slowly put down the paper film and put a cold and sarcastic smile on the corners of his mouth. After going to the stairwell, the bodyguard woman called the bodyguard man, "Miss Jane is still in the office." "OK?" Bodyguard male question. "En..." the bodyguard woman answered. The bodyguard looked at the Land Rover in front of him. After answering the sound, he turned around and turned back to Lingyu international. "You are still waiting there." "Good!" The bodyguard woman answered and went downstairs. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao carried Jian Mo all the way to the nearest hospital. Because she was worried, she was panting. The sound of "Hua La" came, and the curtain blocked Chu Zixiao''s sight. The words of the mysterious man inadvertently echoed in his mind. Chu Zixiao''s vision gradually became deep and bottomless... With a dark color. The emergency doctor examined Jian Mo and found no obvious symptoms... He planned to take blood for test. Just after smoking, Jane Mo woke up Listening to what the doctor said, she sighed secretly. In such a situation, Li Yunze and several experts from Huakang hospital were helpless. She didn''t report any great hope for the results of the hospital. Jian Mo lay on the hospital bed waiting for the result. Looking at Chu Zixiao standing at the end of the hospital bed, she felt a little dignified. So they looked at each other, and no one spoke. After a while, Jane Mo took a deep breath, "why did you go to my side?" "A client is also in Lingyu..." Chu Zixiao said faintly. "Somehow, he pressed it to your floor. When he saw that the light in your office was still on, he went to have a look." "Don''t put on the bottom of her eyes," said Jane, and asked her not to put on her eyes. "You fainted?" Chu Zixiao gave a light sigh. Jane nodded. Chu Zixiao frowned, "do you often faint recently?" Jane Mo didn''t speak, but her heart was heavy. She didn''t know how to react to being met with such a situation. She just began to be afraid That fear is not for anything else, but for the unknown. Even if the terminal illness is still something, it''s good to have a result. But now... Nothing can be detected. She is still in a state of vertigo more and more frequently. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were suddenly deep. He looked at Jian Mo''s pale face and his breath was a little messy. "Wait until the results come out..." Chu Zixiao said in a tangled voice, "I''ll go out and make a phone call." With that, he wanted to turn and leave. "You have something to do. I''ll go back later." Jane Mo said quickly. Because of frequent dizziness recently, it is no problem to have at least half a day after knowing this. Plus being with Chu Zixiao, she is really embarrassed now Chu Zixiao didn''t turn back, but slightly tilted his head, glanced away one after another, and asked in a self mocking voice, "Mo Mo, do you think... In your case, I can leave without scruples?" In a word, I can''t say anything when I choke on Jane''s foam. Chu Zixiao didn''t say anything, just took back his sight and turned away Jane Mo heaved a long breath with a heavy heart, lowered her eyes, and covered the solemnity of her eyes with her fine long eyelashes. Chu Zixiao went outside, opened the door, opened the toolbox and took out the bottle of medicine inside Holding it in his hand for a long time, Chu Zixiao suddenly grasped the medicine bottle. Chu Zixiao closed the door and turned back to the hospital. Professor Zhang is sure that there is no problem with the composition of this medicine. First take one to Momo... If it works, give it to her again. Thinking like this, Chu Zixiao already stood in front of the water dispenser, took a paper cup, took out a pill, put it in and received water. The medicine dissolved quickly after meeting with water. Chu Zixiao was slightly stunned, but he didn''t think much. When he went to the examination room, Chu Zixiao opened the door and saw Jian Mo looking out of the window at the night. His face was full of fear and worry about the unknown Chu Zixiao didn''t know why she was worried about that. She felt that Jian Mo was not for herself, but for the future of her and Gu Beichen. Slightly clenched the hand holding the cup, and Jane Mo had seen it. Collect the mood from the bottom of my heart, Chu Zixiao walked forward, "drink some water?" Chapter 411 Chu Zixiao hesitated, but the cup didn''t come forward. Jian Mo was just a little thirsty, nodded, instinctively stretched out his hand and came forward... It can be seen that Chu Zixiao didn''t give it to her, and curled up his fingers slightly in embarrassment. Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo with complex in his eyes. After all, he handed her the water cup. After taking a few sips of water, I don''t know whether it''s the bitter taste buds in my mouth or something. I always feel that the water is slightly astringent. Without much thought, Jian Mo drank a glass of water. "Do you want any more?" Chu Zixiao asked in a low but gentle voice. Jane Mo''s face was a little red and shook her head. She looked at the door inadvertently, and she was suffering in her heart. Embarrassment didn''t get better because of a glass of water. Jane Mo just hung her eyes and didn''t speak. Fortunately, the doctor came back soon The same result is that anemia is more serious and there are some hypoglycemia. Let''s eat fruits with high sugar content under the condition of balanced diet. "No other questions?" Chu Zixiao was a little worried. After pondering, he asked, "for example... What elements are too high?" The doctor was stunned and shook his head. "For the time being, there is no problem. If you don''t feel at ease, it is recommended to go to work tomorrow and have a systematic examination in the hospital..." Jane Mo has lost hope and can only let it go. "I''ll take you back..." Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth, "no, I''ll just go back by myself..." Chu Zixiao was silent and asked, "did you drive?" Jane nodded. "I have to go to Lingyu again. Just in time, you go back to get something and drive back?" Chu Zixiao suggested. Jane moo smiled at the corners of her mouth and nodded in a gloomy mood. Watching Chu Zi''s roller coaster leave, he stopped in a car on the roadside of the hospital, and a phone dialed out "Chu Zixiao and Jian Mo go back. They arrive in about five minutes and distract the two bodyguards who follow Jian mo." All the way back, the atmosphere in the car was a little depressed. Fortunately, the journey was not long. When the car stopped at Lingyu, Jane Mo breathed out secretly They entered Lingyu and got on the elevator together. Chu Zixiao wanted to send Jian Mo up. After taking something, he sent her downstairs. However, seeing that her face gradually recovered, there was no reluctance. Jane Mo cleaned up the design drawings, took the mobile phone and looked at it first. There were no missed calls and text messages With a slight frown, Jane Mo carried her bag and walked out, opening the SMS interface strangely. When she saw a text message an hour ago, she couldn''t help whispering, "did he send me a text message? I returned it... Sure enough, my memory is getting worse and worse recently." Jane froth her mouth, and she has no longer able to make complaints about her intermittent amnesia. Got out of the parking lot, drove out of the underground garage and drove to the mid level villa When the bodyguard saw Jane Mo''s car coming out, he followed her not far or near. Shi Shaoqin sat in the car and looked at the scene. The beautiful corners of his mouth gently raised a wanton radian, and Feng''s eyes narrowed gently "Qin Shao?" Morson looked in the rearview mirror. Shi Shaoqin slightly lowered his eyebrows and eyes and said faintly, "return to the ink palace." "Never less..." Morson hesitated. Shi Shaoqin already took out his mobile phone and dialed Shi juechi''s phone. "Shaoqin?" Shi juechi looked at the time and was puzzled. "I''ll go back and celebrate my birthday with you..." Shi Shaoqin said faintly. Shi Juxi frowned, "why did you suddenly come back?" Shi Shaoqin said slightly, "why? Don''t you want me to go back with you?" "How?" Shi Juxi chuckled, his voice soft and elegant. After two more words, Shi juechi hung up the phone, looked at the medicine bottle in front of him with a faint vision, and frowned tightly If Shaoqin comes back, he has no reason to go to Los Angeles. How do you give Jane Mo this medicine? Shi juechi sighed and mocked himself... He shouldn''t expect to hide something from Shaoqin in Mo palace. Night shrouded Los Angeles, and private planes were doing pre departure security checks at Los Angeles Airport. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window of the VVIP lounge with one hand and took out his mobile phone with the other hand and sent a text message to Jian mo Shao Shi: I have something to leave Los Angeles temporarily. If you have any questions, please call me. Jian Mo just entered the villa, took out his mobile phone, saw that it was Shaoshi''s, and replied to him with a smile: OK, after the main drawing is completed, I will send you the 3D effect drawing first. Shao Shi: OK! Jane Mo smiled and received her mobile phone Shi Shaoqin put away his mobile phone, and a smile like nothing spread around his mouth Everything is ready, and the next development will be very interesting. "Chen..." Shi Shaoqin gently opened his lips, and the faint voice seemed to come from ancient times. "I have arranged such a big game for you, and you will have a good time." Gu Beichen sat in the car and looked at the night scene of Los Angeles slowly across his eyes. His eyebrows gradually frowned. Xiao Jing drove the car and looked in the rearview mirror. Just as the street lamp crossed the body, a light flashed through Gu Beichen''s cold face, showing his worries on his handsome face. "Chen Shao, is the shareholders'' meeting still open?" Xiao Jing asked as he looked back. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly. "Second uncle came prepared this time. Don''t you open it? Do you think it''s possible?" "It''s not impossible..." Xiao Jing said with fixed eyes. Gu Beichen drooped his eyes, "I don''t want to make public the matter of holding shares in Mo''er''s hand for the time being..." Xiao Jing knew that it was nothing to say. He just tried... How can Chen Shao push Mrs. Shao into the forefront now? It''s just that if you want to alleviate, there''s only one way, isn''t it? The car was quiet until the car turned into the villa. Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and said, "the wedding is still the same..." "I understand." Xiao Jing looked at Beichen from the rearview mirror again, and then parked the car in the parking space. Looking at Jian Mo''s car on one side, Gu Beichen smiled slightly at the corners of his mouth, as if the cold breath outside had suddenly disappeared. "Chen Shao, I''ll go back first." Xiao Jing said, "do you need to come and pick you up tomorrow morning?" "No, I''ll drive there myself." Gu Beichen said that he had got off the bus. Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen''s figure and walked to the villa. He sighed, "things are developing more and more unexpectedly. I really don''t know what they will face next?" With another deep sigh, Xiao Jing started the car and left Gu Beichen walked to the villa indifferently. At the moment of opening the door, a figure rushed over. He subconsciously opened his arms and hugged Jian mo "Just back?" Gu Beichen said softly, but he was already sure. At that time, he texted and she said she was going to come back, but obviously the little woman didn''t! Jian Mo knows that Gu Beichen said her "amnesia" text message. Fortunately, she replied before fainting... Otherwise, he will worry again! Chapter 412 Jane Mo grabbed Gu Beichen''s skirt with her small hand, slightly padded her toes, and kissed him on his lip. She opened her eyes and lied, "I just want to wait for you today..." Jiao Chen''s voice was soft and coquettish. She didn''t know whether it was a guilty heart or Jian Mo''s panic about the unknown. Before Gu Beichen had a response, she had put on her thin lips again Gently licking and hissing on the lips are full of itchy warmth and ignorance. Even though Jane Mo''s kiss has experienced so many times of love, it is not very skilled. However, just because of her clumsy behavior, it is the most direct hand to lift Gu Beichen''s heartstrings. Gu Beichen didn''t move and let Jian Mo try to pick beans from him there. A pair of ink pupils were already deep. The breath became slightly heavy, and a burning flame in the lower abdomen had begun to burn. Some nerves became eager to try because of Jane Mo''s expectant and hard kiss. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen held Jian Mo''s waist in one hand and clasped the back of her head in the other hand. He shouted loudly. His lips and tongue were out of control and wanted to occupy the dominant position. Jian Mo saw that Gu Beichen began to release her enthusiasm. She didn''t care what she wanted to learn Gu Beichen couldn''t stand such provocation from her, but in a moment, he had disarmed and surrendered and held her. A rotation had pushed her against the door. The position of the big palm didn''t move. Jian Mo didn''t receive any force when she touched the door. On the contrary, because of the slight rebound, she and Gu Beichen were completely entangled together. The sentimental kiss vented the uneasiness of the two people. While each other covered their hesitation with their own enthusiasm, they wanted more Wheezing and whining came when they mingled with each other. When they climbed the peak of primitive love, they seemed to be greatly satisfied and have firm confidence. "Ah Chen, I won''t leave you..." Jane Mo said dreamily in Gu Beichen''s arms, his face buried in his chest. Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but held her tight. "We''ll never separate..." Jane said with a lip. Gu Beichen closed his eyes and still didn''t speak Jane Mo didn''t speak any more. She just felt Gu Beichen''s heartbeat quietly. After a kiss gently fell on the position of his heart, she closed her eyes. This night, Jane Mo had a dream In the dream, there was an ancient castle surrounded by the sea, as if it were an isolated place in the sea. It was dark at night, which made people afraid. Jane stood alone in front of the mysterious castle Suddenly, a thunderbolt struck, and in an instant, it rained cats and dogs. Jane Mo was a little afraid. She wanted to leave, but the ancient castle surrounded by the sea gave her nowhere to escape. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo shouted in fear. Suddenly, a figure appeared in front of her. When Jian Mo saw it, her eyes lit up, "ah Chen..." She ran over with joy, and the figure turned around. Jian Mo saw that it was Gu Beichen, and her running steps accelerated a bit, "ah Chen... Ah -" When Jian Mo reacted, Gu Beichen''s figure had disappeared, and he didn''t know what was going on. He was even in the sea integrated with Mo Kong. "Ah - help... Help... Uh... Gollum..." Jian Mo splashed in the sea with fear. With fear on her face, she drank several mouthfuls of sea water. Despair spread in the bottom of her eyes. Jane Mo wanted to shout Gu Beichen, but her throat seemed to be blocked by something. She couldn''t make a sound. The breath is getting heavier and heavier. Jian Mo''s hand is shaking when holding the quilt. "Mo''er, wake up... Mo''er..." Gu Beichen pushed Jian Mo gently, trying to wake her up. However, Jane Mo fell into a nightmare and couldn''t get out at all. She just trembled more and more. The rain was falling harder and harder, beating on the sea and setting off wild waves. "Help me... Ah Chen..." Jane Mo gasped and couldn''t sob clearly. Gu Beichen gently pushed Jian Mo again. She still didn''t wake up, but her eyebrows were tightly wrinkled together Jian Mo Gulu Gulu kept drinking the sea water. The smell of death filled her body. She wanted to float to the surface, but her body kept falling down. Suddenly, a "plop" sound came, and a figure swam into the sea like a swordfish. Just as Jane Mo''s head was about to be submerged by the sea, the figure had come to her and grabbed her wrist. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo woke up with a cry, burning out hope in despair. "See clearly, who am I?" A cold voice came, "your ah Chen won''t come to save you at all. He will only ruthlessly abandon you!" Jian Mo looked at the person in front of him and instantly changed from Gu Beichen to Chu Zixiao. His face became as pale as paper, "no, ah Chen will never abandon me, never!" Jian Mo roared, as if trying to drive away the inexplicable panic. Chu Zixiao looked up at the sky and laughed sharply. When he hung his head, the dark bottom of his eyes was the same as that of the fusion of water and sky. It was so dark that people couldn''t see the depth. "In that case, you can wait for him to save you... Hahaha..." Chu Zixiao laughed sharply and threw away Jian mo. "Ah -" Jian Mo was instantly swallowed by the sea. At the last glance, Chu Zixiao''s crazy smiling face like a devil, "ah Chen -" Jian Mo exclaimed, "Teng" bounced and sat up. If Gu Beichen didn''t react quickly, her forehead would have to hit Gu Beichen. Jian Mo gasped, his forehead was full of cold sweat... Because of his heavy breathing, his chest was up and down. "Mo''er?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo worried. Jane Mo swallowed hard and lost her luster. She looked at Gu Beichen with some lax eyes. There was obvious fear after panic on her face. Gu Beichen gently took Jian Mo into his arms and stroked her back with his big palm, trying to comfort her. "What''s the matter, huh?" Gu Beichen''s low and magnetic voice sounded gently in his ear, showing a calming effect. Jian Mo was still panting because of the lingering palpitations, and her eyes stared wide. The kind of immersion in the sea water, Gu Beichen instantly became the instant visual feeling of Chu Zixiao, so that she didn''t feel that she was dreaming at all. That kind of truth seems to happen or has happened. Gu Beichen gently stroked Jian Mo, "no matter what you dream about, those are fake... En?" The light voice finally eased Jane Mo''s mood, but the fear in the dream still occupied the nerve. After swallowing deeply again, Jian Mo asked anxiously, "Gu Beichen, you will never leave me, will you? You won''t push me away, will you?" Chapter 413 Gu Beichen''s heart was suddenly knocked down, and his heart spasmed in an instant I felt Jane Mo''s nightmare and uneasiness because of him. At that moment, I felt powerless and felt guilty. "No..." Gu Beichen said softly, "as long as we can be together, I won''t let go." His words were full of deep meaning, but Jian Mo didn''t hear it at the moment because of her hesitation under fear. "Have you forgotten? We''re going to have a wedding in half a month..." Gu Beichen''s voice is long and far-reaching. "Mo''er, although we haven''t experienced great storms and waves, we have also precipitated each other through years, haven''t we?" Jane Mo''s nervous body gradually slowed down. She put her arms around Gu Beichen''s waist, buried her face in his neck and made a gentle "en" sound. Her uneasiness comes from the feeling that people all over the world are trying to separate her from Gu Beichen... Even her body. Close your eyes and hide all your uneasiness She couldn''t worry about gain and loss like this. When she was upset, she asked ah Chen to put her mind on her. "Sleep..." Gu Beichen held Jianmo in one hand and Jianmo''s hand in the other, gently holding it in the palm of his hand, trying to comfort her. This time, Jian Mo slept soundly until dawn. What''s more rare is that her biological clock appears again "Good morning, husband!" Jian Mo cried bleary eyed, got up and kissed Gu Beichen at the corner of his mouth. "Good morning..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes and deep doubts. Jane Mo didn''t find it. She just got up and went to wash. When having breakfast, Gu Beichen always inadvertently looks at Jian mo At first, Jane Mo thought it was affectionate. Later, she felt strange, "is there something wrong with my makeup painting today?" Then she raised her hand and subconsciously touched her face. Gu Beichen shook his head, "no, I think you are much better today..." In fact, since Jian Mo fainted for no reason, her face is much worse than before, even her spirit is not good... Although she covers it with exquisite makeup every day. According to common sense, she had nightmares last night. She shouldn''t have such a good spirit in the morning. At the same time, she has no residual feeling about that dream. But obviously Not only did the dream not cause her trouble, but even her complexion was much better than before. Gu Beichen raised his thin lips in a shallow arc and shook his head, "you are beautiful today!" "That''s why I was not beautiful before?" Jane Mo deliberately asked with an eyebrow, feeling very childish. Gu Beichen smiled, "Meimei..." "Tut Tut, are you saying this important thing three times?" Jane Mo said with bright eyes. Gu Beichen''s eyes gathered slightly and looked at the spirit on Jian Mo''s face. For a moment, it seemed that he had returned to his two-year contract marriage life. I don''t know if Gu Beichen''s eyes are too hot. Jane Mo chucks the corners of her lips, clenches her hand with a fork, and asks with a touch of crimson on her face, "it''s Friday today!" "En......" Gu Beichen answered in a low voice, with a smile in his deep eyes. He didn''t poke Jian Mo to change the topic. "You''re going to invite your mother''s family in the evening. Won''t you forget?" Jane Mo seldom has a good memory. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight deeper and deeper, but his face didn''t change much. He just nodded gently at the corner of his lips, "I''ve covered the viewing platform in Wangjiang building." "Local tyrant..." Jian Mo hissed and scolded, and then continued to eat with a smile. "The milk bag sent a text message this morning," Gu Beichen said, looking at Jian Mo, "saying he won''t come back this week." "Why?" Jane Mo immediately raised her head, "this smelly boy, why are you losing your home more and more?" Gu Beichen smiled, "because tomorrow and the day after tomorrow, grandma will be a guest teacher at school." "Ah?" Jane was a little surprised. "Xiaojie is not suitable for exposure recently. Grandma wants to see him in this way..." Gu Beichen explained. There were some complicated emotions in Jane Mo''s eyes. "Does the milk bag know grandma?" Gu Beichen smiled, "what do you think?" "In this way, grandma, I don''t think I''ll tell the identity of the milk bag..." Jian Mo glanced. "However, except that the milk bag is proud and charming here, others are selling cute and good models. I should be able to guess the identity of grandma soon." Gu Beichen''s smile deepened a little and didn''t speak. "Tut Tut, your father and son are both sultry..." Jane Mo can''t stand it. "I''ll have a daughter later. She''s as beautiful as me, and someone will be on the same front with me." Gu Beichen listened, looked at Jian Mo seriously and asked, "isn''t it... Is my daughter my father''s intimate little cotton padded jacket?" "..." Jane Mo opened her mouth slightly, and suddenly there was a feeling of thunder killing her. Why is it that after ten months of painstaking pregnancy, a woman gives birth to a child who is close to her father? Jane Mo holds the drawing pen and tilts her mouth with dissatisfaction on her face. "Dong Dong!" The knock on the door interrupted Jane Mo''s thoughts. Looking up, Chu Zixiao pushed the door and came in. Involuntarily, she wrinkled her eyebrows, and Jane Mo got up, "Why are you here?" She tried to keep her tone from showing emotion. "Or come and see the client..." Chu Zixiao explained, looking at Jian Mo, "do you feel better?" Jane nodded, "much better. Today, obviously, she has a better spirit." Chu Zixiao could see that Jian Mo''s face was good. He could not help but feel relieved about the medicine. "It''s all right. I''ll come up and have a look..." he paused. "Let''s have dinner together later?" Jane wanted to refuse, but she felt bad. When she was in a dilemma, she saw Andy come in with the design drawing. Her eyes lit up and she hurried to say, "I''m going to discuss the design drawing with Andy at noon. I''ve been busy lately." Chu Zixiao is a lawyer. What he is good at is observing people''s expressions. What''s more... Jian Mo is still his favorite? "Then turn around..." Chu Zixiao said without showing too much, "I''ll deal with the case first." Jane Mo nodded and sent Chu Zixiao out... When she passed Andy, she prayed that he didn''t hear what she just said. Otherwise, if you escape Chu Zixiao, you will fall into Andy''s side again. She is also kind and tired. Chu Zixiao entered the elevator and pressed the floor where the party was located. When the elevator door closed, the calm on his face gradually disintegrated The look and expression of Mo Mo is obviously much better than that of grandma Tai at her birthday party and yesterday. Is it... Really that medicine? But the other party said they needed three or four Chu Zixiao''s heart suddenly became nervous, not only because of the medicine, but also because of the medicine they put in Jian Mo''s body. The sound of "Ding" interrupted Chu Zixiao''s thoughts. He stepped out at the moment when the elevator door opened. At the same time, he sent a text message to Gu Beichen: see you in blues at an appointment! Chapter 414 Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window of the ancient castle and looked at the rolling sea ahead, narrowing his eyes slightly. After the knock came, Morson pushed the door and came in. "Qin Shao," said Mosen respectfully, "there is news from Los Angeles that Chu Zixiao has given Jian mo the first medicine." Shi Shaoqin''s enchanting Phoenix eyes narrowed slightly and his vision became deep. "Enlarge the news of the Mo palace... Isn''t the Chen family asking if I''m in the Mo palace? Let them see it." Mosen looked at the back of Shi Shaoqin, then lowered his eyes, "yes!" After answering the voice, he turned and wanted to go out, but he saw Shi Juxi standing at the door, "never less!" Shi Shaoqin turned around, and Mosen also looked back at him. Seeing that he didn''t say anything, he took back his sight, bowed slightly to Shi juechi and left over him. "You didn''t come back to celebrate my birthday with me," said Shi juechi, without much expression on his face, and his voice was always gentle and calm. "You came back because you needed to come back, so you came back..." There was neither too much disappointment nor too much anger, as if... It was normal for him. Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but looked at Shi juechi quietly, "I''m coming back to celebrate your birthday." "Then I''ll just deal with things by the way..." Shi juechi answered, slightly wiping the corners of his mouth, like a smile bathed in the spring breeze. Shi Shaoqin sighed softly, as if he had no choice, "stop Chi!" "It doesn''t matter..." Shi juechi said with a smile. "If you say so, I must believe you. After all, you are my only relative in the world." Shi Shaoqin frowned in an instant, and a touch of complex emotion crossed his enchanting eyes. "Shall I make dinner later and have it together?" Shi Juxi asked. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, "no..." Shi juechi shrugged and left without saying anything. As for the purpose of his coming, it doesn''t matter anymore. Shaoqin''s return to Mo palace means that he has planned everything... He can''t leave. Anything here can''t be passed on to the outside without telling him. Standing at the end of the corridor, the warmth on Shi juechi''s face gradually disappeared, replacing the gradually shrouded sadness. "Is there anything you want to say to me?" Shi Shaoqin''s words suddenly came from behind. Shi juechi hates the feeling that he is dead. He appears behind you like a ghost. He can''t escape his sight at any time. No movement. Shi juechi took a deep breath and turned around... Facing Shi Shaoqin''s eyes. The two brothers are fraternal twins, who are different in character and appearance... But it''s just that each other has only one relative in the world. "You once said that if one day I fell in love with a woman, I would be the first to tell you..." Shi juechi seemed to have some difficult openings. Shi Shaoqin Feng''s eyes became deep and answered softly, "HMM." "No matter who she is, because of me, you won''t hurt..." Shi juechi said again. Shi Shaoqin seemed calm, and there was a storm in the depths of his eyes, "HMM." He continued to answer. He waited for Shi Juxi to say, but he seemed to know what he was going to say Shi juechi is fearless under Shi Shaoqin''s fierce sight. He is probably the only person in the world who can face Shi Shaoqin like this. "She is..." Shi Juxi clenched his teeth and squeezed out from his teeth clearly word by word, "Jian Mo!" Shi Shaoqin smiled as if Epiphyllum were blooming in the night. Just after a moment of beauty, it was shrouded in the crazy night "Do you love her or do you want to help her?" Shi Shaoqin asked coldly, "juechi, you are overdrawing my kindness to you... Do you understand?" Shi juechi smiled and said frankly, "Shaoqin, how do you know that I don''t really like her?" A rhetorical question really stopped Shi Shaoqin Shi juechi didn''t say this again, but smiled at Shi Shaoqin, "if you want to hear why I like Jianmo, welcome!" Then he smiled back and turned down the stairs. "Once, you could fight against me everywhere in order to save Gu Beichen..." Shi Shaoqin''s cold words came from behind, "won''t you ''like'' Jane Mo for him now?" Shi Jue Chi''s steps slightly stagnated, didn''t say anything, raised his steps and continued to walk down Walk down the revolving stairs of the ancient castle layer by layer Shi juechi sometimes felt that it was like going to hell, which made him feel heavy. An "isolated island", an ancient castle... A imprisoned people''s heart is doomed to the sorrow of the people here. If he used his whole life''s feelings to sacrifice and pull the heart out of the abyss, why not? The sea water is pounding the beach. In the sun, the sea water is like gold, but it is cold. "You let him go, didn''t you?" Shi juechi''s voice was too light. Under the sound of the waves, he couldn''t even hear himself clearly. "Shaoqin, when you think of what happened that day, maybe you won''t be so tangled." ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. At night, the viewing platform of Wangjiang building. Jian Mo propped up the railing and looked at the night view of the Los Angeles River, with a smile in her mouth and blurred memories in her bright eyes. Gu Beichen came over, circled her into his arms from behind, put his chin on her shoulder, and the two looked at the night "All gone?" Jane Mo asked slightly. Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently raised, "en..." Today, Gu Beichen invited people from Xiangyu architectural design department to dinner and invited them to the wedding Although everyone knew the news from Grandma Gu''s birthday banquet release, Gu Beichen invited him face to face, and everyone still felt his attention to Jian mo. Take Xiangwan''s words: sister Mo, if you lose our general manager in this life, I won''t forgive you first. In fact, Xiang Wan was wrong. The first one who didn''t forgive her was herself. Lying in Gu Beichen''s arms, Jane Mo raised her hand and looked at the ring on her ring finger Under the soft light, the blue diamond emits a faint light. "Ah Chen, you said..." Jian Mo asked with a smile, "will you hide any secret in the ring like a TV series?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep, "why do you ask?" "I always think there''s something secret in the ring..." Jane Mo said with her eyebrows and lips. Gu Beichen''s sight became deeper and deeper. There was an unpredictable emotion at the bottom of his eyes. "What secret?" Jane Mo turned her head and looked at Gu Beichen. Then she smiled and said, "you love my secret... Stupid!" Gu Beichen''s emotion at the bottom of his eyes suddenly turned into a deep gaze, and a smile was raised on one side of his thin lips. "Ah Chen, I don''t seem to have given you a serious gift..." Jane Mo suddenly said, "I''ll give you a gift, too, OK?" "What?" Gu Beichen looked at the charming appearance of Jianmo elf and asked with a smile. Jian Mo raised her eyebrows, "a recent gift..." Chapter 415 Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s eyes more and more deeply, and saw her smiling take back her holding left hand Under the light, Gu Beichen''s sight coagulated slightly with her actions. Jian Mo moved the ring slightly, and then turned his palm to Gu Beichen Gu Beichen looked puzzled. The eagle''s eyes were as sharp as a detector, but for a moment, his attention focused on the position of the original ring. I saw that there was still some crimson. Under the soft light, the handwriting under the crimson was clearly visible Four letters... Chen! "The left ring finger is the place closest to my heart..." Jane Mo''s voice came vaguely. "I''m always thinking about how to express my love for you earlier and deeper than you think... Maybe it''s only possible to put you in the place closest to my heart and connect with the life commitment you gave me." Gu Beichen looked at the location of the tattoo and didn''t recover. It was obvious that this was a new trace today. He didn''t know why she did it all of a sudden, but he just knew... The woman told him with all her strength that she was determined to go down with him. The kiss fell on Jane Mo''s lips, and everything was logical. Hook, lick, suck Every time Gu Beichen used his fanatical flame to ignite Jian Mo''s thoughts. "I love you" over and over again is particularly charming with the company of the stars. Gu Beichen even thinks about... The past. Although Jian Mo won''t forgive her mother, at least... Won''t doubt his love and commitment to her. At night, under the two people who yearn for each other, they become ambiguous and blurred everywhere. The two intertwined bodies, while playing the beginning of each other''s happiness, seem to promise each other. On this road, each other will walk hand in hand and shoulder to shoulder What Gu Beichen doesn''t know about this tattoo is Jane Mo is afraid that she will forget the most important person in her life one day! The weekend morning comes in the clear and crisp cry of birds, and the ''chirping'' is particularly comfortable. Jane Mo was tortured by Gu Beichen''s lack of restraint last night, and her whole body fell apart. I don''t know it''s because she''s in poor health recently. He''s more restrained. She''s in good spirits. It''s like he hasn''t eaten meat for hundreds of years. Jane Mo looked aside and there was no one over there. She took her cell phone and wanted to see the time, so she saw a post it note there. Take ¡ª¡ªI''ll wait for you to come down for breakfast! Jane Mo was slightly stunned. Looking at Gu Beichen''s strong font, she tilted her mouth. "Didn''t it say last night that there were still things in the company today?" After whispering, Jane Mo went to wash, changed her clothes and went downstairs. What she didn''t find out was that her movements were faster than usual When people stand at the entrance of the stairs downstairs and look at the "overcrowding" in the living room, Jane Mo is not in a state for a moment. Half mountain villa is Gu Beichen''s private domain. Gu Beichen rarely lets outsiders come here except for close people. "Hello, madam!" Everyone saluted Jane Mo with a smile. Jane Mo frowned, smiled politely, then went downstairs with doubts and looked at the table Gu Beichen folded the newspaper and motioned to Aunt Luo. With a smile, aunt Luo went to heat up the breakfast and brought it to Jane mo. "young lady, eat more breakfast. Lunch may be delayed." Jane Mo looked at Aunt Luo''s ambiguous eyes and blushed. It''s already ten o''clock now. After breakfast, I have lunch later... I''m sure I can''t eat it! Aunt Luo looked at Gu Beichen and turned away with a smile. "What do these people do?" Jane Mo leaned forward slightly and asked in a low voice. At the same time, she glanced at the other side of her eyes. "Eat first..." Gu Beichen said faintly. Jane Mo skimmed her lips, but she didn''t ask much. Anyway, she should know later. I don''t know if she exercised too much last night. Jane Mo has a surprisingly good appetite. It''s not the same way as forcing herself to eat the other day Gu Beichen watched her eat like this. Seeing that she was happy to eat, he couldn''t help raising the corners of his mouth. His smile doesn''t matter to Jian Mo, but in the eyes of those waiting, it''s like seeing the end of the world Are you kidding? When the president smiles, he mostly smiles when he wants to lay off staff or swear. One by one, they swallowed secretly, glanced sideways at the people around them and exchanged glances with each other... Then stood silent and waited for Jian Mo to finish eating. One of the men with a pigtail stopped talking several times. He really wanted to remind Mrs. Shao that it''s good to eat less. If you don''t wait, you may be out of shape. Unfortunately, he dare not say. Because Gu Beichen looked at the way Jian Mo ate, he wanted to take a camera every minute "So full..." Jian Mo touched his stomach after drinking a bowl of red dates and tremella soup. "I haven''t eaten like this for a long time." Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep. "Do you want to go out for a walk with you first?" "Are you all right today?" Jane Mo wondered. Although it is a weekend, for Gu Beichen, there is no weekend. Managing such a large multinational group, coupled with the different time from abroad, he often sleeps in luxury Especially recently, although she doesn''t ask, it doesn''t mean she doesn''t pay attention to media trends. The emperor''s affairs have become white hot. He still has time to accompany her here... Eat in the morning and take a walk? "What the hell is going on?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen with a wary face. "No need to take a walk to digest?" Gu Beichen confirmed again. Jane Mo frowned slightly and shook her head. "I want to know what you want to do..." she said. She looked at the people waiting over there with doubts on her face. Gu Beichen got up and walked to Jian mo. he took her hand and walked over Because of the angle from downstairs to the dining table, Jane Mo didn''t see two big clothes hangers on one side of those people, that is, under the stairs. One is wedding dress and the other is dress. Slightly stunned, she widened her eyes, and Jane Mo looked away at Gu Beichen, "this is..." Hearing the excitement in her voice, Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, "take wedding photos!" "Take wedding photos?" Jane Mo repeated in amazement, as if she couldn''t believe it. The wedding is about to be held. For the wedding of a rich family, with the simplicity of the last time, in fact, Jian Mo is not particularly looking forward to the complexity of this time. However, it''s not that she didn''t expect wedding photos But Gu Beichen didn''t mention it, and she didn''t mention it. After all, she didn''t want such a thing to fetter him in this troubled time. But he gave her such a surprise this weekend Jian Mo''s nose was slightly sour and looked at Gu Beichen. The fundus of his eyes was moved and gradually filled with a thin layer of water mist Chapter 416 Blue sky, white clouds, grassland Handsome men and beautiful women, black handmade suits cut in different styles, advanced customized wedding dresses It seems that with all this, there is something called "sweet" in the whole air, soaking a few "visitors" in a honey pot. "Chen Shao and Mrs. Shao are well matched..." servant a holds his fist with both hands and has a dreamy face. "Handsome men and beautiful women, such a combination is to break the convention!" Servant B "complains" but has a crazy face. "Don''t you have to work?" Servant C splashed cold water, but he looked at Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, who hugged each other and looked at each other affectionately. He wanted to shout "the picture is too beautiful. I''m sorry if I don''t kiss the audience"! ¡°¡­¡­¡± Aunt Luo looked at the little maids with envy, jealousy and hatred on their faces. She couldn''t help laughing and scolding, "after reading it, go back to her job." Several maids looked at Aunt Luo with a praying face of "look at it again for a while". Aunt Luo stared at everyone and warned, "I''m not afraid of Chen Shao. Now, because Mrs. Shao''s smiling face is right, I''ll cut you onlookers back?" As soon as the maids heard this, their bodies were cold for a while, and they stuck out their tongues and left in dismay Aunt Luo couldn''t cry or laugh. Looking at the camera at this moment, Gu Beichen, who was gazing at Jian Mo affectionately, thought about his indifference in the past, and the corners of her mouth couldn''t help laughing. Chen Shao may be able to return to the past, driven by his wife Shao "Don''t kiss the bride completely..." the photographer shouted anxiously when Jian Mo completely kissed Gu Beichen''s mouth, "so the sun can''t come in from the middle!" "Teng" once, Jane Mo''s face turned red. Gu Beichen looked at her with deep eyes, and his thin lips were filled with a teasing smile. Jian Mo''s face became redder, and her dissatisfied mouth muttered, "I said I could kiss you, but I didn''t say I couldn''t kiss..." she left her mouth and looked up at Gu Beichen''s deep and bottomless sight. Because she was shy, her face became redder and redder. When the sound of "card erasing" came, I saw the photographer looking at the finished photos excitedly The sun penetrated between Gu Beichen and Jian mo. Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo, with a smile of evil charm on the corners of his mouth Jane froth her eyes because of her shyness. Her cheeks did not know whether it was because the sun was still red because of shyness. It was so red that it permeated the pink and blush, and the special happiness of falling down. The photographer hurried over with the camera like offering treasure, "Chen Shao, madam Shao, this is the main film?" He looked at Jian Mo expectantly. Obviously, he knew clearly... If Jian Mo agreed, it would be OK! Jian Mo looked at the photo and gradually, the fundus of her eyes turned soft This photo is really beautiful. That beauty has nothing to do with looks... But the feelings of two people. "Just this one..." Jian Mo said excitedly, looking forward to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen spoiled his soft eyes and nodded. When Gu Beichen nodded, the photographer wanted to jump up excitedly Unfortunately, I dare not! With the main film, the following is more casual. The photographer can capture it at any time. On weekdays, the arrogant and indifferent domineering president suddenly turned into a tender and loyal dog. The whole wedding photography team sighed that love is indeed the most powerful double-edged sword in the world. Can make people have contradictory changes. After taking the wedding photos, it''s already more than one o''clock at noon Aunt Luo had already prepared lunch. After Jane Mo and Gu Beichen changed their clothes, she ordered the servant to bring it up. "Wait, I''m going to the company..." "Well, I have to draw!" Jane Mo hurriedly said, not letting Gu Beichen tell her guilt. Gu Beichen smiled at the corners of his mouth and looked at Jian Mo, who was in a good mental state opposite. "I''ll make an appointment with Yunze to check my body tomorrow..." "I..." Jane Mo wanted to refuse, but the words came to her mouth and changed her mouth, "OK!" Although she feels very energetic today, ah Chen is not at ease, isn''t she? Jian Mo doesn''t like going to the hospital. Maybe it''s because her parents left in the hospital... Gu Beichen doesn''t know this. However, the repetition of his body can''t delay the opportunity to know the truth because she doesn''t like going to the hospital. The dead are gone, and the living should work harder to live well every day. Blues. When Gu Beichen arrived, Chu Zixiao was in the wine cellar. He stood in the middle of the stairs, watching Chu Zixiao with a bottle of wine in his hand Gu Beichen went down the stairs, took off his suit and coat, and said, "what Tom paid attention to last time, I didn''t enter the auction house..." "Arrived but didn''t say?" Chu Zixiao glanced at Gu Beichen. He drank this red wine during a long trip to France before. There is not much left in the world. He has been paying attention to it Unexpectedly, Beichen was photographed by him. Gu Beichen stood still and glanced at Chu Zixiao with a far-reaching eye. Then he threw his suit coat on a chair and went to get a goblet. Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen''s action, his eyes narrowed slightly, and turned to start the wine. The soft spotlight fell on them, almost the same action of twisting the cup and shaking the glass... Looking at the wall hanging of red wine, he raised his hand and took a shallow sip. People who don''t know their relationship think they are brothers who grew up together. "Still want to say Mo''er?" Gu Beichen put down his glass. Mo Tong looked at the wine rack in front of him and lay back on the chair slowly. Obviously, the random action overflowed the breath of cold and domineering. Chu Zixiao glanced at Gu Beichen, and his little uncle was still the same man in recent years, as if he had not changed. "Is Mo Mo in bad health recently?" Chu Zixiao asked with his eyes fixed. Gu Beichen glanced at Chu Zixiao and said, "well". Since he asks so, he knows. "Why?" Chu Zixiao''s voice showed a trace of questioning. Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned, but for a moment, he restrained his thoughts and became a consistent indifference, "what do you want to say?" Chu Zixiao astringed his eyes and leaned on the sofa, shaking his goblet gently with his fingers Under the light, the liquor became particularly confusing to the human eye. "Mo Mo''s health has always been very good," Chu Zixiao looked at the red wine with complex emotions. "Is this your care?" Gu Beichen looked at Chu Zixiao sideways. The eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly and opened in an instant. No explanation, no need to explain. He and Zixiao can''t go back. Raise her hand and Chu Zixiao pours all the red wine in the glass into her mouth. "Beichen..." Chu Zixiao shouted, "there will be another shareholders'' meeting in one month." Today''s form, we are very clear... Beichen has no chance of winning. "And then?" Gu Beichen''s voice was calm, but his courage was invisible. Chu Zixiao looked sideways. "Maybe you will be willing to negotiate with me..." he paused. His voice was cold and meant something, "not only shares, but also foam!" Chapter 417 Gu Beichen twisted the cup and lowered his eyes slightly. The dark eyelashes gathered away the dark thoughts at the bottom of his eyes. "Zixiao, your words will make me think more..." Gu Beichen raised his eyes, and the lines on his cold, carved face were tight. "If you don''t know enough about you, many things can be solved without the shareholders'' meeting in a month, now." Gu Beichen said, raised his glass and poured the wine into his mouth. While putting down his overlapping legs, the goblet had been placed aside and got up. The shirt has not been unbuttoned for a long time Chu Zixiao didn''t speak. He got up and began to roll up his sleeves It is said that blues was rarely closed that day. It is also said that the business was closed for a week after Blues... Because most of the wine in the cellar was reimbursed. It wasn''t drunk. It was "smashed" by Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao. "You and I will... Break all friendship!" Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen, wiped the blood on the corner of his mouth, turned around, took his suit coat and left. Gu Beichen stood in the middle of the mess. The eagle''s eyes gradually looked at Chu Zixiao''s back as he left, "will you come to my wedding with Mo''er next month?" Chu Zixiao''s body suddenly stagnated, and his hand scratched by the wine bottle suddenly clenched. Suddenly, the sound of "Gaga" dislocation came. Without answer, Chu Zixiao raised his feet again and left with big steps This one, completely put aside all the past. Both Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao know that from then on, they have no emotional factors. Some are just the competition between men. Li Yunze treated Gu Beichen''s wound with a dignified look, "can''t you bear it?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but looked at Li Yunze coldly. Li Yunze raised his eyes and continued to apply the medicine, "you have to force yourself to a dead end..." "If I want to uproot the emperor''s cancer, I must put it on the edge of the cliff." Gu Beichen opened his mouth coldly. "Although boss long agrees with you, have you ever thought that there is a Jian Mo between you and Zixiao." Li Yunze said angrily. Gu Beichen pulled back the hand still on the medicine, "what else to say?" At the mention of Jian Mo, Li Yunze found that Gu Beichen became unreasonable. However, I can understand After so many years, others don''t know that their brothers know how hard Beichen is. Now someone wants to lead him out of darkness to light. What kind of temptation is that? With a deep sigh, Li Yunze took Gu Beichen''s hand again and began to apply medicine to him. "Dad, I''ll go back to sign the transfer right tonight... In my hand, you''ll always be at ease." Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Between brothers, sometimes many things don''t need to be said. The setting sun hit Gu Beichen''s side face through the window and reflected him for half a day He lowered his eyes, took out his mobile phone and called Jane mo Jane Mo drove to school. Although Jane Jie couldn''t come back, she thought she couldn''t pick him up during the next wedding. She was afraid she missed him too much. The sweet piano bell came, and Jane Mo put on a Bluetooth headset and picked it up "Still drawing?" Gu Beichen''s low and magnetic voice came. Jane Mo didn''t want Gu Beichen to feel guilty. She lied and said, "I went to the supermarket to buy something. I''m on the way." "Do you need me to pick you up?" Gu Beichen asked. "No, no..." Jane Mo said hurriedly, "I''m driving." "En..." Gu Beichen looked down at the injury on his hand, "I may go back later today." "You can be busy, but remember to eat." Jane Mo explained. "OK." Gu Beichen answered softly. "Well, I''m still driving..." Jian Mo said hurriedly when she saw that the school had arrived. "Husband, meimoda!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a shallow smile, answered again, and hung up the phone. "Smile so silvery......" Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen with an unbearable face, shook his head and sighed. "Yunze, have you ever thought about the home of a woman and a child?" Gu Beichen ignored Li Yunze''s teasing and asked. Li Yunze frowned slightly. A figure inadvertently crossed his mind, but he was abruptly cut off by himself, "no!" "Still thinking about why?" "Shit!" As soon as Li Yunze heard the name of "he Yining", he jumped up, "Gu Beichen, have you just had a fight with Chu Zixiao? You''re not happy. Are you going to have another fight?" "Childish..." Gu Beichen said coldly, then got up, "I''m leaving." Li Yunze also stared at Gu Beichen''s figure leaving, with complex emotions in his eyes. ¡­¡­ After Jane Mo parked the car, she took the certificate and entered the school gate Not two minutes after she went in, an 185 man with a baseball cap also came to the school gate. The guard checked his papers and certificates and let him in. Shen Hao looked at Jian Mo and walked briskly to the kindergarten branch. He smiled slightly at the corners of his mouth and raised his feet to follow him. When Jian Jie saw Jian Mo, his obvious eyes lit up, "Mommy..." However, in an instant, he received a surprise, a high cold fan of a little male god. Before Jian Mo could see Jian Jie''s excitement, he was filled with pride. "It seems that you''re not happy to see me at all." "Some people don''t think much of me!" Jane Jie''s dark eyes have a little dissatisfaction, "anyway, some people can''t do what their husbands forget their sons!" "..." Jian Mo grinned. "If you don''t dig at me, I can die? If you don''t have a poisonous tongue, don''t you have nothing to do all day? You''re so old to find a plug for me. Do you like your little girls?" Looking at Jian Mo''s full of anger, Jian Jie fanned his long and dense eyelashes and grinned, "Mommy, I miss you so much..." when Jian Mo''s eyes were full of joy, he said proudly, "... It''s strange, ha ha!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "milk bag, you''re dead!" "Mommy, you have a different identity now. You should pay attention to reserve..." Jian Jie turned his eyes dissatisfied when he saw Jian Mo''s teeth and claws. "You''ll disgrace daddy." "..." Jian Mo put his hand over his chest and asked the sky without a word. Why does the son dislike her like this? At the same time, Gu Beichen also said that he would have a daughter in the future, which is also his father''s intimate little cotton padded jacket? The baby''s heart is bitter and the baby is unhappy Shen Hao put his hand in the pocket of his jeans and looked at Jian Mo and Jian Jie frolicking in the distance. His sight deepened slightly. Until watching Jian Mo leave, Shen Hao''s mouth gradually aroused a faint smile of evil, and then looked coldly at Jian Jie... Raised his feet and walked towards him Chapter 418 Jian Jie looked at Shen Hao coming, and his black pupil flashed doubt. "Children..." Shen Hao shouted, and the man squatted down. "I''m looking for Jia Mengting from Class 3. Do you know where class 3 is?" Jian Mo looked around and then looked at Shen Hao. "Uncle, according to your distance, shouldn''t you ask the two children over there?" Shen Hao looked with his direction, "why?" "Those two children are closer to where you came," Jian Jie said seriously. "According to common sense and people''s thinking of reaction action, subconsciously they will choose the person with the shortest distance to ask, won''t they?" "..." Shen Hao twitched at the corners of his mouth. Jane Jie blinked and continued to say calmly, "so it''s wrong for you to ask me..." "..." Shen Hao has a black line on his face, "can''t the uncle turn back and ask the two children?" Jane Jie thought for a while and then asked, "who is uncle Jia Mengting?" "I''m her uncle and her parents are my eldest brother and sister-in-law..." Shen Hao replied. Jian Jie listened and slightly frowned. "Uncle, do you know... One of the two children I just said should be asked is Jia Mengting?" "..." Shen Hao heard this, and a deep sense of consternation crossed his evil face. "Obviously, you are not Jia Mengting''s uncle!" Jian Mo still calmly analyzed, "well, there are only two possibilities for such a situation... Either my uncle has any thoughts on Jia Mengting, or my uncle''s purpose is me!" "..." Shen Hao felt that his IQ was not enough in front of a child. Who can tell him whether a four-year-old child should be so calm and have such strong analysis and observation? "If my uncle''s purpose is me, I advise my uncle not to continue..." Jian Jie doesn''t know if he is tired and sits down on the stone bench, "because not everyone can bear the consequences." If the purpose of this person is really himself, he should want to threaten daddy with himself? He won''t give him this chance! Suddenly, you laugh, or do you laugh Jane Jay is not worried at the moment. As long as he is still under surveillance, the man can''t take him away. Besides, at the moment, he didn''t feel the danger in this man. "What do you think?" Jian Jie beckoned Shen Hao to sit down. "In my opinion, Jane Mo can teach you basic good and bad common sense at most. She shouldn''t teach you at this level." Shen Hao sat down with a smile. "You and Gu Beichen didn''t meet until they returned to China... And it didn''t take long for you to live here. It seems that it''s impossible to teach systematically." "Can I think in disguise that you are praising me?" Jane Jie asked with bright eyes. Shen Hao was stunned and laughed completely Gu Beichen is so indifferent that he gave birth to an ancient and strange son. Is it genetic mutation or to activate the atmosphere? However, he can understand Gu Beichen''s idea of putting the boy here to live on campus Gu mohuai was able to lay hands on his own nephew. How could his nephew''s son let go? "Are you not afraid of me now?" Shen Hao asked curiously. "Look around..." Jane Jie turned her head. Shen Hao didn''t see it. He is the one who catches the wrong door and is the most sensitive to the monitor "Seriously, I like you very much." Shen Hao lightly hooked an evil radian on one side of the corner of his mouth, "if you fall into my hands in the future, I''ll send you a favor." Jane Jie frowned. "What about someone else?" Shen Hao looked at Jian Jie and couldn''t laugh or cry. "Gain an inch..." he said. He smiled and walked in the direction of Jia Mengting. "Uncle..." Jian Jie didn''t expect that Shen Hao really went to Jia Mengting. Shen Hao looked back and saw Jian Jie''s worry. He picked his eyebrows and said angrily, "I really came to find Jia Mengting... She is indeed my eldest brother''s child, but I haven''t seen her." Then he flashed his eyes at Jane Jay and whistled. It''s like saying, little guy, you were just too sensitive He happened to catch up with Jian Mo when he came here. By the way, he just looked at Gu Beichen''s son in this "rumor". However, he didn''t expect that the little guy was smart and alert... He liked it. I can''t help it. I''ve been on the road for a long time. I want to strangle my child when I see him crying. Jian Jie frowned and was dissatisfied with Shen Hao whistling at him. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao returned to the apartment and opened the door. When he saw Gu Ci, he frowned in an instant. Gu CI passed by after going to the women''s Association and thought of coming up to see Chu Zixiao After grandma Gu''s birthday party scandal, Gu CI knew that Jian Mo was the first love girl in Zixiao University! At that time, she didn''t know how to describe her inner surging. Her original favor for Jane Mo suddenly became negative. "What''s the matter with you?" Gu CI looked at the bruise on the corner of Chu Zixiao''s mouth, immediately sat up and stared in horror. "Who beat you?" Gu CI greeted him with a distressed look on his face. "I said, don''t you want to be a lawyer or a criminal defense lawyer... How hateful? Look at you..." "Mom!" Chu Zixiao frowned, "can you make me quiet for a while?" He went to the sofa and sat down. The whole man lay relaxed on it, his head on his back, and his vision fell on the roof Gu CI looked at his son and frowned, "Zixiao, don''t tell me you''re fighting with Beichen?" Chu Zixiao didn''t speak. "Is it because of Jane Mo?" Gu Ci''s voice suddenly rose. "No..." Chu Zixiao''s voice was a little distant. Gu CI stepped forward and sat down beside Chu Zixiao. "Zixiao, I don''t care whether what the media said is true or not, and whether you had anything to do with Jane mo before... Now, she is your little aunt!" Chu Zixiao slowly sat up and looked at Gu CI. His lips moved back and forth. When he reached his mouth, he didn''t say anything. The whole world thinks she is Beichen''s woman now, so he can''t have any more thoughts Why doesn''t anyone think about it? Once, Jane Mo was his woman! Seeing Chu Zixiao''s appearance, Gu Ci was angry, but didn''t say anything more, "I don''t know how to deal with the wound..." "Mom," a touch of coldness quickly crossed from the bottom of his eyes and Chu Zixiao opened his mouth, "you said that the feelings between men and women are rational and emotional... But why do I think it''s not very right?" Gu CI didn''t think much, but turned his eyes and said, "that''s not what you asked me when you were in college. I don''t know how to answer. Just say that..." Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Ci and said, "I think it depends on people. Sometimes it''s the opposite!" Chapter 419 Gu CI looked at Chu Zixiao and was worried, "Zixiao, don''t you really think about Jian Mo?" Chu Zixiao didn''t answer. But he was Gu Ci''s son, and she immediately sank her face. "If so, I advise you to accept that thought." Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Ci and mocked himself at the corners of his mouth. "Don''t say that Jane Mo and Beichen have been married for more than six years. Even if they haven''t, they have an affair with your little uncle. This person can''t enter the door of the Chu family again!" Gu CI seemed to be angry, and his face sank a little. "Isn''t it a joke to tell?" "Only those who are strong enough will not be laughed at, won''t they?" Chu Zixiao spoke faintly. Gu CI didn''t expect Chu Zixiao to say, "that''s why you want to get the emperor''s shares, and even didn''t vote at the last shareholders'' meeting, right?" Chu Zixiao looked back and didn''t speak. "Zixiao, are you crazy?" Gu CI asked Chu Zixiao with a low roar. "I''m not crazy, I''m just unwilling... Why?" Chu Zixiao sneered, "Mom, whether you support or oppose this matter, I naturally have discretion in how to do it." Gu CI trembled with anger. "Zixiao, do you know what you''re doing?" "I know!" Chu Zixiao''s voice was cold. "From small to large, I always know what I want to do and what I want... Mom, isn''t it?" Gu Ci was stunned by Chu Zixiao''s question. Indeed, Zixiao was independent when he was very young. He has his own life goal and belief. But "That''s because of your little uncle!" Gu CI said in despair, "your childhood goal and all your characters are all because of Beichen!" Chu Zixiao was silent Yes, his life is influenced by Beichen, so... Anyone can, but he can''t! "I''m tired..." Chu Zixiao got up. "I''ll go to sleep." Then he turned and walked to the bedroom. Gu CI looked at Chu Zixiao with a complicated look. He didn''t know how his son, who had always been the most reassuring, suddenly became such a situation. After taking a deep breath, Gu CI went to the sofa, took his bag and went out of the door. Just got on the bus, she called Gu Beichen "Elder sister!" Gu Beichen is still in Huakang hospital. "Where is it?" Gu Ci''s voice was a little dignified. "It''s all right. Let''s have dinner together?" Hearing Gu Ci''s voice, Gu Beichen probably understood what she wanted to talk about, "I have something here..." Gu CI frowned slightly. "I want to talk to you about Zixiao." "There''s nothing to talk about." Gu Beichen''s voice was calm and people couldn''t hear his emotions. "If you want to ask about Jian Mo, I can only say... At first, I didn''t check the relationship between her and Jian Zhanfeng. Do you think I''ll know what happened between her and Zixiao?" Gu Ci was silent. No matter what the form of Gu''s family is now, Beichen still doesn''t believe that she will pit Zixiao at this point "Beichen, you are an elder. No matter what, you should always let some Zixiao." Gu Ci was helpless. "But I''m also a man!" Gu Beichen''s voice was calm from beginning to end, without too much emotional overflow. Gu CI sighed heavily and was speechless. "Look at your time. Come back and have dinner at home." "OK." Gu Beichen answered. Gu CI hung up the phone, feeling dignified. She is a little uneasy now. She always feels that Jane Mo is a time bomb for her family Not only mom''s side, but also Zixiao and Beichen''s side, all have accidents sooner or later. ¡­¡­ "Jian Mo, Andy..." Yu Ziyun shouted to two people, "you two go to the meeting with me." "Good!" ¡°OK£¡¡± Jian Mo and Andy both agreed, packed up their things and walked out with Yu Ziyun In the conference room, several people in the evening compared a refueling posture with Jane Mo, with expectations in their eyes. After today''s meeting, Jane Mo is going to take her wedding leave The wedding is less than a week away. Although there are special people to worry about the size of the wedding, there is still no way for her wedding heroine not to be present. In order to meet the three public standards of fairness, fairness and openness, the official LTV TV station in Los Angeles will broadcast the whole process live. The companies participating in the bidding have no interest in work and no important work. They are crowded in the tea room to watch the live broadcast Even if there are projects in hand, they are absent-minded. Go to the tea room from time to time to see if it''s their turn to the company. "Ah ah, when the results are announced, they are about to have myocardial infarction..." Xiang night is an acute child. However, the government''s bidding is the same as the award ceremony, and she is about to explode. "Calm down..." Mo Xiaoya rolled over her eyes and pressed her mouth. "Look at the camera. You can see president Yu and Mo mo. they are calm and calm one by one. That''s what makes you confident. Mount Tai collapses at the top and doesn''t change your face." "I don''t care whether to change the color or not. I just want to know the result..." Xiang night gritted his teeth. "After 20 secret votes, now announce the companies that have obtained the design right in each region..." at the right time, the voice of the host was uploaded from the TV. "To publish the results, to publish the results..." Yelled at me for a while. Suddenly, people who were still working rushed to the tea room. At the same time, the emperor''s president''s office. Gu Beichen leaned lazily on his chair and looked slightly at the big screen in front of him, waiting for the announcement of the results. "I''ll be on leave after the government bidding meeting tomorrow..." Last night, under the heavy breath of the two lingering people in bed, Jane Mo took time to say. "Sure?" Gu Beichen is light. Jian Mo glanced. "The opponents are very strong, but this time it''s everyone''s hard work... It''s also the first time for me to cooperate with such a large area of employees in Xiangyu. I like this feeling." Gu Beichen pecked at the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth, but the evil spirit asked lingran, "I''ll give you a gift if I win." "What?" Jane Mo asked curiously. Gu Beichen smiled, "secret..." "Annoying!" Jian Mo was angry and bit Gu Beichen on his shoulder. "Puppy..." Gu Beichen pushed forward with a strong force, and his voice was low and full of charm under magnetism. Jane Mo''s body convulsed for a while, so Shuyi made her whole person floating, "what if she falls the mark?" Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo''s earrings, "a gift for you..." "Then I''m not bad?" Jane Mojiao smiled. Gu Beichen pushed himself with deep eyes, breathing with warmth and spreading it in Jian Mo''s ear, "who makes you my wife?" "First of all, announce the company that has obtained the design right in area a..." Chapter 420 On TV, the voice of the host came Xiangyu''s people''s hearts are mentioned in their voices. This success is big. In the future, everyone has capital to change jobs. When it is small, president Yu said that if he won the bid, he would get a raise. Everyone is subconsciously nervous about the interests of everyone. "Shit, he thinks it''s really an award ceremony..." I waited a few seconds later to see the host, but he was still grinding and hawing. I was so angry that I was going to lift the table. "Is his announcement or not?" Qiao Zirong put his hands around his chest and leaned on the column. "Since we have a live broadcast, we must have some gimmicks." Mu Xiaoran also stamped his feet back and forth in a hurry and put his hands on his chest. "It''s like a wedding gift for sister Mo and President Gu. It must be Xiangyu, it must be Xiangyu..." "The host of the project has the right to open the project for half a minute..." said the host in the design area of the project for half a minute... " "Ow..." As the result came out, a scream of Joy came from the tea room, as if the roof were going to be lifted. At the bidding site, applause came like thunder. On behalf of Xiangyu, Jian Mo took over the bidding document from the mayor of Los Angeles and delivered a thank-you speech. Jane awesome said that she had paid much attention to the design, and said the necessary opening remarks. Finally, she said with a smile, "a good team is obviously more capable than any individual soldier. And all these cannot do without a bole you appreciate." Jian Mo''s eyes fell on Yu Ziyun. "Thank you, Mr. Yu. Everyone in Xiangyu... Will witness the growth of Xiangyu together." The applause came again. Jane Mo was generous, nodded with everyone confidently, and stepped off the stage with a smile Once again, Jane Mo became the focus of Los Angeles. I don''t know where the news came from. Although Yu Ziyun was the leader of the team this time, Jian Mo did all the design leading from beginning to end. In terms of appearance, safety, surrounding environment and historical basis, each item was considered carefully, so that this design was recognized by more than 80% of the judges. When a woman is beautiful, talented and has a good man... She is destined to be the winner of life and the "target of public criticism". Because when you are too good, many people will see what they can''t achieve... You will become the one who is isolated. Since the release of the answer, the media in Los Angeles have begun to report wantonly. Jian Mo, who will hold an internal wedding with Gu Beichen in less than a week, has occupied all the headlines. Gu Beichen sent a text message: you are the best designer in my heart. Jane Mo: but what such a designer wants most is her and your future Gu Beichen''s eyes are light and deep: give it to you! Jane Mo pondered slightly, and there was a touch of complex emotion in the depths of the black pupil: but the future is based on the past. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and he simply called Jian mo "Husband..." The sound of crisp and numb came with a smile, completely different from the sound of SMS just now. Gu Beichen is very useful for the "changeable" of Jian mo. "The company has a celebration meeting in the evening. I''m afraid I won''t get your gift until a little later!" Jane Mo said with a small eyebrow. Gu Beichen''s thin lips were filled with a smile. He liked Jane Mo''s little anger. "Well, just left time for me to prepare..." "Ah? You''re not ready yet?" Jane was a little surprised. "If you think you won''t win, you don''t need to prepare." Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, and the smile at the corners of his mouth was also raised. Jane Mo wrinkled her nose and snorted, "I think I''m very powerful, so you don''t have to pretend." Gu Beichen''s smile has spread over Junyan and reached the bottom of his eyes, "HMM." Gently answered the voice, so that Jane Mo was elated immediately. Everyone''s praise didn''t make Gu Beichen happy. "The gift is not special, I don''t want it!" Jian Mo said hurriedly, "even if I get a full set of out of print architectural design books this time, I won''t be too excited." "I don''t know if you will like it, but it should still be a surprise..." Gu Beichen said with an eyebrow. As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she was very eager for Gu Beichen''s gift. His eyes fell on the ring on his left hand. Jane Mozhe said at the corner of her mouth, "Mr. Yu asked me to ask you if you want to come over?" "No..." Gu Beichen said, "call me when you''re finished, and I''ll pick you up..." "Well, good!" Jane Mo answered and saw Andy waving to her. She motioned and hurriedly said, "ah Chen, remember what I said in my text message, don''t turn the page!" Gu Beichen looked deep and said, "if you have a chance, you can say..." "OK, I''ll wait for you!" Jian Mo answered, hung up, left the bidding site with Yu Ziyun and Andy and went back to the company. Along the way, the radio was discussing the news of Guangyu''s historical theme city. Jane Mo looked out of the window and looked at the passing buildings in Los Angeles. She gradually lost her mind. "Do you feel perfect?" Yu Ziyun suddenly asked. Jane Mo didn''t take back her sight, but quietly replied: "career, love, family... It seems that it''s really perfect." However, why will such uneasiness attack as soon as it is quiet? Jane Mo doesn''t know what''s wrong with her. She didn''t worry about gain and loss in the past. Obviously, everything is developing well, but why does she feel that she is overdrawing her future happiness? The car stopped at the red light and thought to Jane Mo, "are you premarital depression?" "Huh?" Jian Mo looked at Yu Ziyun suspiciously. "You see your face is sad about spring and Autumn..." Yu Ziyun''s evil eyebrow, "I think you can see the crooked nuts." Andy has made great progress in Chinese now. He listens carefully to the two people''s chat. "Jane, have you decided not to marry Gu Beichen?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Jian Mo and Yu Ziyun suddenly look black. Where did Andy hear their conversation? It means that Jian Mo doesn''t want to marry Gu Beichen? "It''s better to listen attentively..." Jian Mo turned back and said speechlessly, "it''s not suitable to understand my great Chinese culture!" Being despised, Andy is a little dissatisfied. Yu Ziyun started the car at the green light. "Don''t be too strict with crooked nuts. If he can understand now, he''s already very powerful..." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she immediately smiled, "Mr. Yu, in order to let me not be sentimental, you are also quite hard." Yu Ziyun shrugged. "For a good employee and partner, I also take care of my emotions... After all, it is related to the long-term development of the company." Jane Mo smiled with gratitude in her eyes. She likes work, but she doesn''t have the mentality of strong women She was very happy in Xiangyu, and Yu Ziyun helped her so much in her most difficult time There is no irreversible accident. She is expected to stay in Xiangyu all her life, right? Chapter 421 "To Xiangyu''s tomorrow, to sister mo... Cheers!" Xiangwan and mu Xiaoran took the lead in coaxing. Under the leadership of two crazy girls, the whole Xiangyu has entered the crazy hi Today is a happy day, because a government project will establish Xiangyu''s position in Los Angeles. At the same time, their value will rise. The most direct benefit is to raise wages. "According to the position of the Department, the finance department and the personnel department will have a meeting tomorrow..." Yu Ziyun waved his hand and said, "everyone gets a raise!" "Roar..." Xiangyu''s roar suddenly exploded under Yu Ziyun''s remarks about a raise in salary. For those who work hard, there is no news more exciting than a raise. "We respect president Yu, sister Mo and Andy..." Jane Mo raised her glass, but didn''t drink much. She''s just getting better recently. She doesn''t want to have any problems before she gets married. She used marriage as a shield, and everyone naturally let her go However, even if she didn''t take a few drinks, she didn''t know why. Jane Mo suddenly had a headache in everyone''s roaring voice. "Mo Mo, are you okay?" Da Xiong happened to be here to get the wine from Jian mo. when he saw her rubbing her temples, he asked with concern. Jane Mo shook her head and pulled the corners of her mouth, "I''m estimated to be old. Some can''t stand such noise..." Da Xiong rolled his eyes. "You''re old. I have to put one foot in the coffin?" Jane Mo smiled. "I''ll go out and breathe. You continue to hi." Da Xiong felt a little tired when he saw Jian Mo and nodded without much thought. Jane Mo took the bag out of the box, closed the door and blocked the frolic sound behind the door. She took a deep breath. At the end of the corridor, I stood on the terrace and looked at the night view of Los Angeles. The sudden dizziness seemed to be gone. Jane Mo didn''t think much. She thought she was really stunned by everyone''s penetrating sound. After all, since Chu Zixiao took her to the hospital when she fainted in the company last time, she hasn''t had the symptoms of vertigo again. Blowing the night wind, looking at the stars on the ink sky, Jane Mo gently fanned her eyelashes. He took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to Gu Beichen with a smile in his mouth: husband, how''s your gift going? Gu Beichen''s mobile phone vibrated. He didn''t move. He was still drawing something on the paper with a drawing pen. After a while, I stopped writing, took my mobile phone, crossed the text message, and replied with a thin smile: are you finished? Jane Mo: No, I''m just looking forward to my husband''s gift. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gradually deepened. Looking at the just completed picture on the paper, he replied to the past: I hope it''s worth your expectation. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s reply, and the smile on the corners of her mouth was the same as invading and soaking in honey. In fact, what Gu Beichen gave her, she was looking forward to. Not because of the gift, but... Who gave the gift! After blowing the wind for a while, Jane Mo returned to the box. Everyone had "made" a mess on the table. "Sister Mo, sister Mo, come and play the game..." Mu Xiaoran saw Jian Mo coming in and shouted quickly, "choose all kinds of boxing. The loser can either have a drink or choose a dish to clear the plate!" "Play so hard?" Jane Mo said with a smile, "drinking and eating so many things is too cruel for me, who is responsible for being as beautiful as flowers at the wedding?" Everyone was stunned at first, and then "ha ha" laughed. "Foam..." Qiao Zirong patted his chest, "you lose, I''ll take the wine!" "I''ll take the vegetables!" Mu Xiaoran said quickly, unwilling to fall behind. "Well, just you two good people..." Sun Ke pretended to be dissatisfied and rolled his eyes. Everyone laughed again for a while. Looking at the atmosphere and happy playing the game, Jane Mo can''t help feeling It''s not easy for everyone to love each other in such an environment. I really hope that the atmosphere of Xiangyu can be maintained all the time, especially the architectural design department. The time passed little by little in the fight. When the show ended, it was already 11 p.m. "Jian Mo, you didn''t drive here. I''ll take you back..." Yu Ziyun said as he walked outside the elevator. "No need..." Jian Mo said with a smile, his eyes hard to hide his sweetness. "My boss has come." "Tut Tut, it''s so sweet..." Mo Xiaoya smiled and sighed in a teasing voice. "Necessary." Jane Mo was not arrogant and impetuous, and also picked her eyebrows in a joke. When they got out of the hotel, they saw the Maybach that Gu Beichen had recently driven parked there. Jian Mo walked to the car in the laughter of everyone... Among them, there were many people who were envious, jealous and hated. Gu Beichen waited for Jian Mo to get into the car. He attached himself to her and fastened her seat belt before starting the car After walking for a while, Jane Mo found that it was not the way back to the middle of the mountain. "Where are we going?" Jane Mo asked suspiciously. "Take you to see the gift..." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo and saw that her eyes were bright, and the ink pupil immediately became deep. Jane Mo didn''t ask again in order to give her expectations. Along the way, she always grinned at the corners of her mouth. "The milk bag sent me a text message today..." Jane Mo looked proud. "He would praise me only when I designed to win a prize or get approval..." Gu Beichen heard that Jian Mo was a little upset, gently opened his thin lips and said, "for this, I will communicate with my son... I should encourage Mommy regularly." Jane Mo grinned, nodded hurriedly and said, "OK, ok..." "Childish!" Gu Beichen shook his head and sighed. Jane Mo looked indifferent. "Of course you feel childish. Anyway, you don''t have to have a son, you don''t have to raise it, and you worship you very much." "..." Gu Beichen stopped the car and looked at Jian Mo with a deep look in his eyes. "Why don''t you go?" Jane Mo looked around curiously. "Here..." Gu Beichen said, sending his seat belt. "Get off." Jane Mo got out of the car quickly because of her expectation of the gift. Gu Beichen has bypassed the front of the car and walked to the small park next to Jian Mo''s hand "Go to the park?" Jane was a little surprised. "The wedding will take place in a few days," Gu Beichen said, holding Jian Mo''s hand. "Mo''er, I have no time to leave traces of memory in your green years. I hope I can make up for it tonight." Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously, just then In the originally dark little park, crystal lights were lit layer by layer. Soon, a road leading to the small pavilion in front was paved with a dream color. Jane Mo looked at it like this. Such a dream is a dream that every woman had when she was a child. "You say I''m childish, you''re childish..." Jane Mo''s nose is already grumbling because it''s sour. How can this man arrange such memories for her in such a busy life? Chapter 422 "Go?" Gu Beichen spoke softly. Jian Mo''s eyes were already full of water mist, and looked at Gu Beichen vaguely. "The gift is in the Pavilion..." Gu Beichen''s thin lips were filled with a faint smile, and the eagle''s eyes seemed to merge with the ink space. However, the cold, carved facial lines gradually became soft. Jian Mo looked at the pavilion in front of her and then looked at Gu Beichen. Her eyes have expectations and hesitations for the unknown, and more importantly, she is at a loss. Gu Beichen raised his hand, his thick finger belly gently crossed the corner of Jian Mo''s eyes, and wiped away the crystal that slipped and didn''t know whether it was excited or moved "Go..." Gu Beichen''s low voice came like a cello. "I''ll wait for you here." When Gu Beichen released her hand, Jane Mo looked at the pavilion in front of her, and then lifted her feet and walked forward She didn''t walk very fast, as if she wanted to immerse herself in such expectation. Step by step... Jane Mo counted her steps. When standing in front of the stone table in the Pavilion... Seeing a square, not a small box on it, Jane Mo looked back Facing Gu Beichen''s line of sight, she took back her line of sight and nervously opened the box. The things inside came into view, and Jane Mo opened her mouth slightly in surprise. She didn''t reflect it for a long time. Looking back at Gu Beichen again, Jane morcai held her breath and looked at the paper in the box She never thought that Gu Beichen''s gift was a hand drawn QR code. Jane Mo hurriedly took out her mobile phone to scan. When the "drop" came, her heart was nervous and forgot to beat. When she saw the scanned information, Jane Mo''s nose was sour and her eyes turned red in an instant. "This is the rhythm that he wants to make my heart fall completely..." Jane Mo hummed to herself. I saw a touching sentence on the mobile phone screen "Hold my hand and walk with your eyes closed. You won''t get lost... It''s my commitment to you to work together for life." Tears, in the end or uncontrollable fall down. The softness in Jane Mo''s heart was touched after all. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo in the pavilion and saw more and more deeply, "Mo''er, do you like this gift?" Jane Mo turned back, her eyelashes fanned, and the tears in her eyes finally fell down, "Mr. Gu, your ideas won''t be picked up from the Internet?" Her voice was coquettish and angry, but she couldn''t hide her joy. She carefully put the two-dimensional code back into the box and turned to Gu Beichen This time, the obvious pace is a little hasty. "I see you occasionally draw QR codes these days..." Gu Beichen explained, "don''t you always want to see my skills?" Jane Mo''s eyes were full of surprises. The two-dimensional code she drew is still pointless... Because her stay wire has a hard wound in the details, it can''t be swept out. But Gu Beichen won''t have such a problem Something overflowed from her heart. Jian Mo stood on tiptoe and kissed Gu Beichen''s lips Gu Beichen held her waist and deepened the kiss with nature. Ink space, bright firefly lamp, a love code, two people It seems that they are trying to compose the memory of love, so that they can recall it in the years to come. ¡­¡­ "Gu Beichen, President of emperor group, and Jian Mo''s wedding will be held in the mid level villa tomorrow..." in the TV, the host''s sweet and capable voice came, "this is also the first time that Chen Shao has opened the mid level villa to the outside world." "According to the latest news sent back by our reporter, Jian Mo will change up to eight sets tomorrow, each of which is a pure handmade custom-made style by famous experts, which is unique..." "Gu Beichen and Jian Mo have a make-up wedding. This wedding, which is six years late, will finally be ushered in by the people who love each other hand in hand..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± On TV, on the Internet, in newspapers On the eve of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo''s wedding, all the news is reporting their wedding tomorrow. Suddenly, the whole city of Los Angeles fell into the wave of Jane foam again. Compared with the outside world, many villas are not open. Jian Mo sits on the grass, with her back against the tree trunk, holding her mobile phone and brushing the Forum Blessed, abusive, all kinds of sour and jealous... There are all kinds of things. ''click'' came, startled Jane Mo, and she subconsciously looked up... She saw Luo Xiaomi standing on the small gravel road in front with his camera in hand. "Little aunt..." Luo Xiaomi shouted sweetly, and the man jumped forward. Jane Mo propped up the grass and wanted to stand up, "how do you..." Before she finished, Jane Mo just felt a ''buzzing'' in her head. In an instant, her eyes were dark. The mobile phone fell to the ground, and Jian Moren fell back. "Little aunt -" Luo Xiaomi ran to him with a frightened stride, "little aunt, what''s the matter with you?" The sound of "buzzing" is like an electric current. Jian Mo wants to respond to Luo Xiaomi, but there is no way. After a while, that feeling slowly disappeared. "Little aunt..." Luo Xiaomi''s face was scared white. Looking at Jian Mo, he slowly opened his eyes and put his heart down. Jane Mo swallowed, "I''m fine..." she took a breath. "Just sitting for too long, she suddenly got up and fainted." "Little aunt, are you not feeling well?" Luo Xiaomi said anxiously, "I''ll call doctor Fang..." "Xiaomi, no need." Jane Mo quickly stopped, "I''m just anemic. I''m too nervous to sleep well because I think the wedding is getting closer and closer these two days." Luo Xiaomi was stunned. "Little aunt, are you nervous?" "Yes." Jane Mo said foolingly, "don''t tell ah Chen what just happened..." "Why?" Luo Xiaomi still looks at Jian Mo worried. "You think, I didn''t sleep well because I was nervous. I told him that he had to work harder?" Jane Mo glanced, "isn''t my status reduced?" Luo Xiaomi immediately felt reasonable. "But..." It makes sense, but my little aunt''s body is the first thing. "Ann, you see, I''m fine now?" Jane Mo shook her body, but she didn''t dare to get up suddenly. Luo Xiaomi was fooled by Jian Mo and left his mouth. Just what did he want to say, Jian Mo opened his mouth. "By the way, why are you here now?" Speaking of this, Luo Xiaomi suddenly came to strength. "I''m in charge of your wedding with my little uncle this time..." Speaking of what Luo Xiaomi was interested in, sure enough, she forgot whether to tell Gu Beichen that Jian Mo had just been dizzy. In the distance, Chu Zixiao stood there with his hands in his pockets. Looking at Jian Mo talking to Luo Xiaomi... Her sight is getting deeper and deeper. Did she... Relapse again? Chapter 423 "Xiao Zi?" Behind him came a cry. Chu Zixiao calmly took back his sight and looked back. He saw Gu Nanyi, "third aunt." Gu Nanyi nodded with a smile and looked at Jian Mo and Luo Xiaomi in the distance. "This girl is crazy all day. She will kiss my mother with her little aunt." It seemed that the casual words fell on Chu Zixiao''s ears, especially harsh. Everyone knows. Although the news about him and Mo Mo came out at the beginning, it doesn''t mean that no one thought about it. The third aunt''s words are obviously reminding him that Mo Mo is now related to his generation. "Why are you free now?" Chu Zixiao asked calmly, as if he didn''t understand Gu Nanyi''s external sound. "Come and see how Xiaomo is getting ready..." Gu Nanyi said with a smile. "Although I know that Beichen must have no details, how can I be a sister? It''s necessary to come and have a look." Chu Zixiao frowned invisibly, but suddenly recovered his calm, "I also came to have a look..." Gu Nanyi smiled a little bigger, "isn''t Beichen there?" "I don''t know. I haven''t gone in yet..." Chu Zixiao calmly replied, "I''ve just arrived, too." "Well, I''ll go and have a look first..." Gu Nanyi said and walked to Jian Mo and Luo Xiaomi. Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Nanyi''s back, and gradually his eyes became familiar. The third aunt is very smart. She can be regarded as the one who doesn''t let men in the women of her family... In fact, Granny Tai has said before that if there is no Beichen, I''m afraid the grandfather of this family will give it to the third aunt. Such a woman is born to know her own way, and can see all kinds of life at the same time. However, people''s hearts... Are sometimes the most difficult to understand. Outside, just like the weather in midsummer, the wedding of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo was hotly discussed. In Spencer, the teachers without classes are inevitably discussing in the office. After class, Jian Jie sat in his seat and turned on his mobile phone to surf the Internet. The screen is full of parents'' messages, and the little guy''s eyes are narrowed For being unable to attend her parents'' wedding, Jane Jie said she was a little disappointed. However, daddy''s arrangement is reasonable, and Jane Jie said that he can understand it. Look at the time. There are five minutes left for class. Jian Jie got up and went out of the classroom. After going to the stairwell, he called Gu Beichen Gu Beichen was still in a meeting. The day before the wedding, there was a strong cold air pressure in the emperor''s meeting room. When Gu Beichen''s mobile phone vibrated in the ''buzzing'', everyone''s heart was raised to their throat The eagle''s eyes drooped slightly. When he saw the caller ID, Gu Beichen said indifferently: "the meeting will be suspended for ten minutes." With that, he got up with his mobile phone and went out of the conference room. "Daddy..." Jian Jie shouted. Gu Beichen''s cold face gradually softened. Without the hostility he had just been in the conference room, his eyes were filled with the softness of his loving father. "Daddy will go to dinner with you at noon, okay?" Jane Mo grinned. "I didn''t mean that, but since daddy wants to see me so much, I can only give you a chance." "OK." Gu Beichen responded with a drowning voice, "what can I say at noon?" ¡°OK£¡¡± Jane Jie quickly agreed, "then daddy is busy. I''ll go to class." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered softly. After Jian Jie hung up, he received his mobile phone. Standing in front of the window in the corridor, looking at the rows of high-rise buildings outside, the cold, carved face was filled with a cold smile because of Jane Jie''s soft and cute voice. However, after entering the conference room, the obvious cold air pressure made the executives present silent one by one. At noon, Jian Jie looked left and right and waited, with expectation in his black pupil. His eyes lit up when he saw Maybach driving in. Gu Beichen got out of the car, and Jian Jie ran over, "Daddy!" Gu Beichen raised his thin lips and stretched out his big palm. Jian Jie looked at the slender and powerful hand and handed his little hand with a smile One is big, one is small, one is tall and one is short. One is wearing a suit and a school uniform and walking slowly in the sun. Just from the back, we can see the different but the same aura of the two people. Xiao Jing supported the door with his arm, looked at the big and small figure walking towards the small canteen, sighed and whispered: "I haven''t had my father around for four years, but I have to live in school for irreversible reasons... Young master Jie, it''s pathetic to think about it." With this, Xiao Jing got a little sour. "But these poor people are nothing..." Xiao jingkan and Jian Jie raised their heads and didn''t know what to say to Gu Beichen. Their delicate little face was soft and waxy in the sun. It seemed that they could pinch out water. "For such a young child, it''s necessary to disguise their desire to be loved and spoiled by their parents. That''s what makes people most distressed..." Shaking his head and sighing, Xiao Jingfu got into the car again. It''s not easy to be an assistant now Xiao Jing was wailing in his heart. He took a bottle of water and biscuits from the toolbox and began to eat "I have several duties. I can''t move a brick to the people where I need it... Why can''t Chen Shao give me more bonuses?" Xiao Jing stuffed a biscuit into his mouth discontentedly and said angrily, "I should ask Mrs. Shao for a raise later." He talked to himself here alone. In the small canteen, the school heard that Gu Beichen was coming today and had cleared out a private area long ago. Looking at the exquisite dishes on the table, Jane Jie has no appetite at all. "Unhappy?" Gu Beichen said softly. "All right..." Jane Jie said bitterly. Gu Beichen''s thin lips slightly hooked a faint smile if there was nothing, "really?" Jian Jie can be proud and charming when facing Jian Mo, but not in front of Gu Beichen. "Daddy," Jane Jie fanned her eyelashes, "why can''t I attend tomorrow''s wedding?" "Because you are a copy of my childhood." Gu Beichen didn''t hide it. Jane Jie drooped her shoulders. "Can you sneak a look?" "No!" Gu Beichen refused directly. There will be too many people on tomorrow''s occasion. He will certainly have some concerns... The undercurrent between him and his second uncle is surging, and he can''t take risks. "I knew..." Jane Jie didn''t have too much disappointment. "I just don''t understand that daddy and Mommy''s wedding, why didn''t Daddy deal with everything?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at his son deeply. After a while, he began to say: "maybe I''m afraid it''s too late..." "Too late?" Jane Jay doesn''t understand. "There are too many wolves around your mommy." Gu Beichen said calmly. Jian Jie glanced, "lying..." No matter how many wolves there are, mommy has only daddy in her heart. Others can only see and can''t eat. Seeing Gu Beichen''s words, Jian Jie simply gave up. Just... Because of Shen Hao''s appearance, the little guy has an idea that Gu Beichen doesn''t know Chapter 424 "Something on your mind?" Gu Beichen asked again. Jian Jie knew that his ability was crushed by his strength in front of his father. He looked up at Gu Beichen and said, "although there are not many people in Los Angeles who know that I exist, it is obvious that there is no such thing." Gu Beichen narrowed his eyes in an instant, "who did you meet?" "An uncle I don''t know," Jane Jie didn''t hide. "He came to see his brother''s children and recognized me at a glance." This shows that even if the purpose of this person is not him... But at least he has an intersection with Daddy. "What day?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Jie thought about it and said the time. Gu Beichen answered and immediately changed the topic Jane Jie was a little disappointed that she couldn''t attend her parents'' wedding. However, she made up for her little loss by having dinner with her father the day before. Gu Beichen went to the monitoring room of the school before leaving the school and called out the monitoring of the time mentioned by Jian Jie Unfortunately, I didn''t see the face of the man Jian Jie said. Obviously, the man knew a lot about monitoring and deliberately avoided it. However, there was an unexpected discovery That day... Mo''er seemed to tell him that she went to the supermarket? Gu Beichen looked at the figure of Jian Mo, and the ink pupil gradually became deep and bottomless... There was a touch of guilt across it. At night, it came under the repeated bombardment of the media. There were paparazzi stationed secretly near the villa in the middle of the mountain. However, within a few minutes, they were pulled out by Xiao Jing''s people. They wailed one by one. Why did the people around Gu Beichen have dog noses and have such a sensitive sense of smell. Maybach drove into the villa, and Xiao Jing and Gu Beichen got out of the car. Because Xiao Jing and Mo Shaochen will play such an important role as best man tomorrow, he plans to live in the villa today. "Who is Mrs. Shao''s Bridesmaid?" Xiao Jing is very curious. "Li Xiaoyue and Xiangwan." Gu Beichen answered calmly. "Tut Tut, young lady, this is to create opportunities for your sisters..." Xiao Jing whistled frivolously. Gu Beichen stopped and looked at Xiao Jing. Xiao Jing suddenly felt cold in his heart and grinned secretly I''m dying! What whistle? "You can also..." Gu Beichen''s voice was low and slow, "as a chance for you." After that, he raised his steps again, ignoring Xiao Jing''s big steps, and went to the villa. Xiao Jing was stunned and thought for a long time before he understood Gu Beichen''s meaning. "Chen Shao, are you making a mess of Mandarin Duck Music?" Xiao Jing caught up with him discontentedly. "Who said the bridesmaid and the best man would make a pair?" That night, although there was no contact, he also met several times because of Jian mo He can''t stand a woman who is seriously ill and gossip. "Back?" When Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen coming in, she immediately "galloped" forward. When she saw Xiao Jing coming in, she quickly stopped the brake. Xiao Jing laughed. "Madam Shao can continue. I''m actually a transparent..." "..." Jane Mo PI nodded with a smile, "then you can go out." "No!" Xiao Jing sniffed the smell of food in the air, "I haven''t eaten yet." Jian Mo grinned and said to Gu Beichen, "wait, Shaochen and Xiaoyue are coming... Xiaomi is here too." "Hi, little uncle!" Luo Xiaomi jumped out from one side, "brother was there, but he answered the phone and left..." Jane Mo secretly turned her eyes and gritted her teeth at Luo Xiaomi. Why does she always mention which pot doesn''t open? Gu Beichen didn''t have too many expression changes on his face, but eagle eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply. Jian Mo shrugged slightly and changed the subject, "there are some dishes I made on the table today. If you don''t answer correctly, what are they... Hey hey..." "Don''t let my little uncle go to bed!" Luo Xiaomi subconsciously took the words. Jian Mo immediately had a visual sense of "speechless asking the sky". Looking at Xiao Jing holding a smile, she wanted to knock Luo Xiaomi out. The villa in the middle of the mountain was full of joy. Soon, Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue arrived one after another. People are eating and chatting at the table, joking The happiest thing is aunt Luo. She has never seen such a lively place since she came to the mid levels villa. However, compared with the excitement here at the moment, the riverside of Los Angeles is filled with a faint sense of loneliness. Chu Zixiao stood there with his hands in his pockets, looking at the Los Angeles River, which was gradually darkened because of the sky, and his sight became familiar with it. One of the required courses for lawyers is tolerance! Only those with good patience can finally get more favorable reality to fight back Chu Zixiao took out his mobile phone and opened the text message. ¡ª¡ªLawyer Chu is indeed a patient person. Only a patient person can take the initiative. Good luck. Look at the number sent. It''s the person who gave him the medicine before. He didn''t reply and didn''t call to ask him He fell into a trap. He didn''t know it, but now he has no way out. Mo palace. Shi Shaoqin sat under the sunshade, listening to the sound of the waves rolling. The narrow Phoenix eyes fell deeply in the distance. On the hollowed out tabletop of British style, there is an open red wine and a goblet, just like him at the moment, with the feeling of being left alone. Shi juechi looked at it from a distance and was puzzled. The external news of the Mo palace has been boiling. What about Shi Shaoqin''s injury and the internal chaos... He even exposed himself in this way? With doubt, he walked forward. Shi Shaoqin glanced at Shi Jue Chi. While taking back his sight, he said, "the person you like will have a wedding with Gu Beichen tomorrow." "Yes." Shi Juxi answered and sat down. "She doesn''t know I like her, and I don''t want to destroy her." Shi Shaoqin sneered, "juechi, how long do you think a lie can be told?" "As long as Chi Shi''s voice can be calm..." Chi Shi will always smile. Shi Shaoqin''s handsome face was already covered with haze. "Actually..." Shi Jue Chi glanced at Shi Shaoqin. "I''m surprised that you will stay here after your birthday." Shi Shaoqin snorted coldly, "isn''t she your lover? Since I promised you, I will recognize it before you finish your lie." Shi Juxi frowned slightly. He couldn''t understand Shi Shaoqin''s behavior more and more. "Shaoqin..." "Don''t worry, I won''t go to Los Angeles in the near future, and I won''t control things there." Shi Shaoqin said, putting down his overlapping slender legs, got up and looked at Shi juechi. "So don''t worry, I''ll destroy Chen and Jian Mo''s wedding tomorrow." Then, without any pause, he turned and walked to the castle. Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin''s lonely and cold figure, and his eyebrows gradually frowned Why is Shaoqin so upset? At the moment, Shi juechi doesn''t know... Shi Shaoqin planned every step in advance at the beginning of a game! Chapter 425 Jian Mo stood on the terrace on the second floor in her nightdress. The night wind blew slowly, revealing the unique comfort of summer night. The inexplicable dizziness on the grass during the day made Jane Mo feel a little nervous. There had been no such situation for many days, and she gradually forgot her physical things But today''s emergency, although only for a while Jane Mo was a little heavy in her heart. She slowly took back her sight and hung her head. "What are you thinking?" Gu Beichen held Jian Mo in his arms from behind and gently absorbed her unique aroma. Jane Mo naturally leaned against Gu Beichen''s solid chest and didn''t speak. Gu Beichen didn''t speak any more, but thin lips wreaked havoc on the skin on Jian Mo''s neck. With the touch of the hot air, Jian Mo''s breath began to be confused, "ah Chen..." "Well..." Gu Beichen answered softly, with a low and magnetic voice. Jane Mo turned around in his arms, and the black pupil looked at him. After a while, she took the initiative to pass her lips forward "Nervous?" Gu Beichen asked while kissing Jian mo. Jane Mo pressed down the panic in her heart, but made a sound of "um". Gu Beichen''s thin lips hooked up evil Si''s smile, "they have been married to me for so long, and it''s still nervous to have a make-up wedding..." After that, he slightly attached himself, picked up Jane Mo horizontally, and went to the bedroom. But for a moment, the rough gasp and the delicate gasp merged together The next day, the sun in Los Angeles seemed to rise earlier. The sky was as blue as it had been washed. There were no clouds at all. The middle of the mountain is a private place. In addition to the media allowed by Gu Beichen, the media coming can only watch the luxury cars go up the mountain at the fork of the road at the foot of the mountain and guess who the people on the car are. Chen Xuan investigated the Mo palace for Gu Beichen''s personal interests. When Emperor Entertainment meets Huayu, it should give way. Huayu also bears the brunt of the emperor''s news. Naturally, the biggest media in the whole wedding scene today is Huaye. Luo Xiaomi took advantage of his identity and became the most convenient paper media outside Huayu. The huge mid levels villa has been crisscrossed everywhere. In the sun, whether you want to see the wedding or have any thoughts, at this moment, you have decent smiles on your faces. Grandma Gu greeted the guests with the help of Cen Lanxi and aunt LAN. Gu Moyuan and Gu mohuai also entertained the people who came "Why didn''t Jane come today?" Gu Moyuan looked around and asked. Gu muhuai sneered, "he said it was inappropriate for him to come here today." "Why not?" Gu Moyuan frowned, "even if he doesn''t have this relationship with Beichen, he is still Jian Mo''s brother." "Let''s not be happy with Jane, let''s kiss her." Gu mohuai sighed, "besides, Beichen doesn''t like him." Gu Moyuan''s eyes gradually became guilty, and his face became slightly heavy. Seeing that the effect was achieved, Gu mohuai said, "I''ll call him and let him come... You greet the guests first." Gu Moyuan nodded, and there was obvious expectation in his eyes. The arrival of guests is different from Grandma Gu''s birthday banquet. Gu Beichen''s reputation in Los Angeles and even the world is no longer comparable to that of the emperor. "All four young people in Los Angeles have arrived..." suddenly, someone was surprised. In a car, after Li Yunze got off the driver''s seat, Long Xiao and Lin Nan got off the car together. "Lin Nan came back?" Lin Nanan, who took off his military uniform and put on his formal clothes, still couldn''t hide his heroic spirit belonging to the army. He stood next to the Dragon owl who was born a king. "Go and see our groom today first?" Lin Nan raised his eyebrows and asked with some evil spirit. "What''s good to see every day?" Li Yunze make complaints about it. The Dragon owl naturally said coldly, "go and say hello to grandma Gu first..." Lin Nan smiled and nodded. When he came back today, he used the contacts of Grandpa and grandma Gu in the military region I can''t help it. The third brother''s wedding is too disgraceful without him. After greeting grandma Gu, the three brothers went into the villa together. Open the door and look around Gu Beichen and Jian Mo are standing by the stairs. Xiang evening and Li Xiaoyue are finishing Jane Mo''s wedding dress. In that way, it''s as beautiful as a picture. "Tut Tut," said Lin Nanan, who had the smell of a military ruffian. "The standard of beauty and weariness of the third sister-in-law really makes people how to find women in the future?" "You can''t look!" Li Yunze shrugged. "Shit, if you don''t look for your woman, I still want to find..." Lin glanced at Nan with contempt and walked over, "third brother and third sister-in-law, congratulations." "Eh, South?" Jane Mo didn''t expect Lin Nanan to come. Doesn''t it mean that he can''t come back from the recent troop training in the deep mountains? "If false, change!" Lin Nannan whistled angrily at Jian Mo, ignoring Gu Beichen''s cold sight, and said with praise, "third sister-in-law, you have reached a new height." Jane Mo zhe smiled, "your army still teaches people how to coax women?" "I''m self-taught. Even if my third brother has to learn from me..." Lin picked his eyebrow and looked at Gu Beichen. "Third brother, what are you doing with a black face? Don''t you want to marry your third sister-in-law?" Gu Beichen''s face became darker. "South, I''m sure you can say again... Beichen will directly take you to the rooftop to practice." Li Yunze said with an eyebrow. Lin shrugged to the south. "I''m not afraid now." "Oh?" Gu Beichen said softly. Gradually, his body overflowed with awe inspiring breath, "do you want to try?" Lin Nannan suddenly wilted and muttered with some dissatisfaction, "I know how to use momentum to pressure people. I don''t think I can... Hum!" Jian Mo looked at Lin Nannan and immediately smiled. Today, Lin Nannan also has a military rank of two cents and one. He is also a capable person in the army, but in front of Gu Beichen, he is a little brother. Seeing the Los Angeles four young people gathered for the first time in the evening, the star eyes are almost dizzy. "Come back..." Mo Xiaoya said, "don''t disgrace your sister mo." Xiang night wailed, "sister Mo, do you feel very happy around so many excellent men..." "I feel happy only when I''m with Mr. Gu!" Jane Mo said without falling into a trap. Li Xiaoyue was the first one to laugh. Looking at Xiang Wan''s flat mouth, she said, "girl, you can''t hurt the little girl''s heart so much!" Suddenly, the people who were close to Xiangyu and Jian Mo laughed one after another. "Chen Shao, madam Shao, the wedding time is almost..." At the right time, a servant came to remind me. Chapter 426 The people went out one after another and sat down in turn in the arranged wedding venue. Everyone looked at the broken red carpet one after another, and their eyes fell on the simple foam with a circle of thread embroidery on the skirt with a heart-shaped wrap around the chest and waist, which is simple in design but reflects all the beauty. There was a stunning light in their eyes. Su Jun left the corner of his mouth with a warm smile. It may be cruel to see the woman he likes holding another man''s arm to the palace of marriage. However, I have to say that seeing her happy smile at the moment, he... Is also happy. Grandma Gu smiled kindly, "Lanxi, do you remember when you married Moyuan?" CEN Lanxi looked at Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, and made a reluctant "um" sound. Grandma Gu glanced at her and said with a smile, "so don''t be dissatisfied... Beichen and Xiaomo are just happy." "Mom..." Cen Lanxi was dissatisfied. "I asked you to come with me today to let you understand how I felt. I can accept you, why can''t you accept Xiaomo?" Grandma Gu''s voice is very quiet, but she is dignified. "Mom, I see." CEN Lanxi held his breath, "what''s the use of I disagree? Beichen won''t listen to me..." Grandma Gu smiled. "Just understand this." The band gradually changed its tone from soft music, and the wedding march echoed in the sun with solemnity and happiness "Dangdang, Dangdang..." Under everyone''s sight, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo looked at each other, and with a very tacit understanding, they raised their steps together, crossed the arch woven with flowers, and walked to the priest. The best man and bridesmaid composed of Mo Shaochen, Xiao Jing, Li Xiaoyue and Xiang evening came forward with a smile on their lips "Sister Mo and President Gu are really well matched..." Mu Xiaoran sighed. Sun Ke nodded, "Mo Mo is also worth such a man to treat her like this." "The most beautiful moment of a woman is indeed the time to be a bride..." Mo Xiaoya looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight and gradually blurred. The big bear''s men consciously reached into his pocket. There was a ring he had prepared for a long time. He plans to propose to Xiaoya with the happiness of Momo today Everyone''s eyes at this moment are on Gu Beichen and Jian mo. although they only have a make-up wedding, it also represents a new chapter in their love. "Now, you can give up..." Su Zhenqi grinned happily. Su Jun smiled bitterly from the corner of his mouth, "Grandpa, if people''s heart can stop pursuing something because of this, there will not be so many disputes in the world." Su Zhenqi was stunned. If he hadn''t been on such an occasion, his temper would have gone wild. There were all kinds of praise voices in his ears. Chu Zixiao sat quietly beside Gu Ci, with no too many expressions on his face, and his eyes moved with Jian Mo''s figure Gu CI inadvertently saw Chu Zixiao''s emotion across the fundus of his eyes and frowned, "Zixiao, if you''re uncomfortable, go and have a rest first." His son is his own. Gu CI can still feel it "No need..." Chu Zixiao said faintly, "does mom want the media to write wantonly?" Gu CI stopped talking. Although several media came in today are familiar with Beichen, it''s inevitable that people present don''t say it Jian truss sat in front of Chu Zixiao, because his mind was not on the wedding, so he listened to Chu Zixiao''s words. He smiled coldly and said something in silence Gu muhuai smiled. "The good play has just begun... We have prepared for so long, let him be happy for a while." With that, his eyes fell on Gu Beichen''s back. With the wedding march and the sighing voice of everyone, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo walked forward step by step However, at a distance of more than ten meters, Jane Mo felt that she could walk like this for a lifetime. Sometimes her life is too long and sometimes too short, but at this moment, she is only willing to believe that she and Gu Beichen can go on like this all the time. From first sight to two years of contractual marriage. From fleeing to joining hands four years later How many six years of life can let each other waste? Jane Mo has no answer! Last night, when she fell into the most direct "abyss of happiness" in his life, she had only one answer. Even if there is only one day of happiness, she will go on with Gu Beichen The road ahead has never been uneasy and at a loss. Most of the time, it''s because you''re not firm enough, isn''t it? Ah Chen, if I can hold your arm like this, that is the happiness of my life... Even if we can''t accompany each other to die. The nose was slightly sour, but Jane Mo smiled more and more brightly. Her worry can''t change anything, but she can treat every day happily... Every day with Gu Beichen. Feeling the change of Jian Mo''s mood, Gu Beichen''s big palm gently covered Jian Mo''s hand and walked with her, but his sight was right There were no words, but Jian Mo saw thousands of words. The priest looked at the couple''s schedule step by step. Obviously, it is a process that everyone knows, but at this moment, everyone is still looking forward to it. "Mr. Gu Beichen, would you like to marry Miss Jian Mo, regardless of adversity or prosperity..." the priest asked, "poverty or wealth, health or unhealthy... Will you stay with her and never leave?" Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo deeply, and then the magnetic voice came, "I''d like to." Applause and cheers came, and the sweetness dispersed in the air. "Sister Mo, how happy..." Mu Xiaoran looked envious of the little girl. The priest looked at Jane Mo with a smile. The sun hit her at the right time and plated her with a golden halo, which was not real. "Miss Jian Mo, are you willing to marry Mr. Gu Beichen, whether in adversity or prosperity... Poverty or wealth, health or unhealthy... Will you stay with her and never give up?" Jane Mo didn''t answer immediately The answer is already known, but everyone''s heart is out of control at this moment. The soft music echoed in the air. The priest looked at Jane Mo and waited for her answer. Everyone''s eyes gradually fell on Jane mo Li Xiaoyue rolled her eyes and thought that Jane Mo was too happy to answer. "Girl..." Li Xiaoyue reminded her softly. Gu Beichen looked sideways and frowned slightly. Jian Mo''s empty hand gradually clenched up. When Li Yunze slightly twisted his eyes and whispered "something''s wrong with Jian Mo", he saw that her body seemed to be paralyzed by evacuation in an instant "Mo''er -" Chapter 427 The sudden situation made everyone stunned and didn''t know how to respond. The people close widened their eyes one by one, and watched Jian Mo''s body fall down softly Gu Beichen quickly took Jian Mo into his arms the moment before she fell. His cold face lost the calm and indifference of the past. The wind comes out gently and raises the white yarn on the top of the hair Jane Mo just felt that the whole world was rotating. She seemed to be in a rotating environment and couldn''t stop. There are screams, panic and worries in my ears. Such a voice seems to be farther and farther away from her world, so far that people want to catch it, but they can''t reach it. Ah Chen Ah Chen Jane Mo shouted again and again, but no one could hear her. It''s so cold... Who will save her? There was only a gap left in Jian Mo''s sight. The last consciousness stayed on wanting to say "I do", but she couldn''t say it. Heavy eyelids, dizzy world, gradually... Pulled her into the boundless darkness. "Mo''er, Mo''er..." Gu Beichen shouted in horror. Grandma Gu and others didn''t know what had happened and hurried forward. "Get out of the way..." Li Jiyuan, Li Yunze''s father, anxiously pushed away the night, pulled Jian Mo''s wrist and began to feel his pulse. The fluffy pulse made his eyebrows frown together. Li Jiyuan looked around, "get out of the way..." The Dragon owl motioned to Xiao Jing. He suddenly reacted and hurriedly asked the people around to get out of the way to give Jian Mo enough breathing space. "What''s the matter?" "Why did you suddenly faint?" "Isn''t it just fine? It''s too sudden..." "Yes! I don''t know if I''m too excited, so..." "It''s hard to say... I don''t want to think about what it''s like to marry the president of the emperor. It''s me. I''ve already fainted..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The voice of whispering came from time to time, but no one was in the mood to pay attention at the moment. Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face collapsed tightly. He gritted his teeth and looked at Li Jiyuan. The depths of the eagle''s eyes had been deeply cold. Grandma Gu looked anxiously, holding aunt Lan''s in her hand, and involuntarily tightened up. The family care people, whether they really care about Jian Mo or not, are anxiously waiting for the result of Li Jiyuan. Chu Zixiao stood not far away. Just at the moment when Jian Mo fainted, he almost rushed past recklessly But in the end, he held back. The line of sight looked from the gap between the people who were surrounded... Jian Mo''s face was as white as her wedding dress, which made people feel holy. But it happens that such whiteness is put on people''s skin and permeates people''s palpitations. Li Jiyuan stopped At the same time, Gu Beichen asked, "Uncle Li, how''s it going?" Li Jiyuan looked at Gu Beichen and all the people around him. His face was dignified "Dad..." Li Yunze asked impatiently, "how about Jane Mo?" "Send to the hospital, I want to further check..." Li Jiyuan paused and said solemnly, "there is something wrong with Jane Mo''s body." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were cold, and he had already held Jian Mo up "I''ll drive!" Xiao Jing said hurriedly. Grandma Gu took a deep breath and calmed her mind slightly. "Let''s go and go to the hospital together." Then she looked at the guests, "my granddaughter-in-law is suddenly unwell. Today''s wedding is temporarily cancelled. Thank you." Grandma Gu spoke, and everyone naturally responded in a hurry, saying that Jian Mo''s body is important. Let Grandma Gu not worry too much A group of people and several cars drove to Huakang hospital one after another Originally full of romantic and sweet wedding scene, but in an instant, it became deserted. Luo Xiaomi was anxious to cry, "Mom... What''s the matter with my little aunt?" Gu Nanyi stayed to send the guests, but he didn''t follow them. Seeing that Luo Xiaomi''s eyes were red, he shook his head "What to do..." Luo Xiaomi hummed, and a layer of water mist filled his eyes instantly. His daughter, Gu Nanyi, knows best. In this case, she should be the first to follow the past... However, it is obvious that she has lost her backbone at the moment. "Xiaomi, are you hiding something from me?" Gu Nanyi asked with staring eyes. Luo Xiaomi hung his head uneasily with his face and his hand holding the camera. "Luo Xiaomi!" Gu Nanyi''s face was cold. ''PATA'' tears fell down like this. Luo Xiaomi bit her lower lip, looked at Gu Nanyi and said, "when I came to find my little aunt yesterday, she fainted..." "What?" Gu Nanyi asked angrily, "why didn''t you say it at that time?" "Little aunt wouldn''t let me say..." Luo Xiaomi choked. "She said, it''s anemia... Suddenly fainted..." "You..." Gu Nanyi gritted his teeth. "You''re just fooling around." "I believed it at that time, because sometimes when I squatted for a long time, I would faint when I got up..." Luo Xiaomi sucked his nose, and now he regretted it. If I had told my little uncle yesterday, wouldn''t my little aunt be so unconscious today? ¡­¡­ The wheel of "Hua La Hua" rubbed against the ground and made a strange sound. In the hospital, it was dignified and depressed. The attending doctors of Li Jiyuan, Li Yunze and Hua Kang who did not have surgery have all gathered in the examination room. The atmosphere has become more and more heavy with sophisticated instruments and doctors integrating traditional Chinese and Western medicine. Gu Beichen stood outside the examination room. His suit and coat had been taken off and thrown aside on the chair. His calm face was completely dignified. "Grandma, drink a glass of water first..." Gu CI poured water for grandma Gu, looked at Gu Beichen, and walked forward. "Beichen, Jane Mo will be fine." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but his eagle eyes kept staring at the door of the examination room. He was too careless, wasn''t he? Jane Mo looks very good in all aspects recently... He was deceived by the illusion of her, isn''t he? Grandma Gu looked at Gu Beichen and her face was dignified. It seemed that she was a lot older all of a sudden. "Mom... Let''s watch here. Why don''t you go back and have a rest?" Gu Moyuan looked at grandma Gu anxiously. Grandma Gu was unmoved. At this moment, she was worried about Jian Mo and Beichen. Gu''s family now knows about Beichen''s kidnapping, probably only her She couldn''t imagine what would happen if Beichen got up and was knocked down by faith. "Mom, shall I take you back first?" Gu mohuai also came up to persuade. "Can you be quiet?" Grandma Gu asked coldly. Chapter 428 As soon as grandma Gu spoke, everyone was silent. You look at me and I look at you. Finally... They all found their own places and waited quietly for the results. It''s estimated that Lan Xi hasn''t been patted by him for a while. It''s estimated that he hasn''t been patted by Bei Chen yet "No need..." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips, and there was no emotion in his voice. Don''t look at his handsome face, just from the words, you can''t hear anything at all. Lin went to the South and came forward, regardless of three, seven and twenty-one. He took Gu Beichen to the chair and forcibly pressed him to sit down "The third sister-in-law doesn''t know the situation. No matter what the next result is, the third sister-in-law needs your support... Third brother, you can take care of the third sister-in-law only after you have a good rest, can''t you?" Sometimes the whole Lin family can''t help it. For Gu Beichen, he is probably the only one who can get up. Everyone looked at Lin Nanan and understood Gu Beichen''s. They had only one idea The next moment, Lin Nannan will get a fist. Unfortunately, no! Gu Beichen just hung his eyes, and the dark eyelashes covered the hesitation and fear at the bottom of his eyes. The Dragon owl patted him on the shoulder and didn''t say anything. He just conveyed silent support and strength. Time, a little bit of the past Because Jianmo suddenly fainted, there was a "Jianmo" wind in the Los Angeles media again. The outside world, just want to hear all kinds of news about rich and famous people, never about your life and death Even, your life or death is the adjustment of their life. Huakang hospital, a heavy. All the family members are at the door of the examination room Xiangyu''s people, Li Xiaoyue, Su Junli and others are waiting in the waiting area not far away. "Late, what happened to sister mo..." Mu Xiaoran''s eyes have been red for several times. Everyone looks dignified. I don''t know how to face such an emergency. Li Xiaoyue raised her lower lip and suddenly got up and walked to the window Tears, so inadvertently filled her eyes, she kept wiping, but she couldn''t wipe them clean. "Jane will be fine..." a comforting voice sounded from one side. Li Xiaoyue hurriedly turned her head and wiped her tears in confusion. Mo Shaochen heaved a sigh and handed out his handkerchief. "Thank you..." Li Xiaoyue took it, hung her head and began to wipe her tears. "I don''t understand that the world is unfair enough to niu''er. Why is she happy after all..." "Don''t be so pessimistic..." Mo Shaochen said softly. "The result is not necessarily very bad." "But she suddenly fainted..." Li Xiaoyue suddenly looked up at Mo Shaochen with a panic in her eyes. Looking at her as if she had lost her support, Mo Shaochen frowned slightly, "you are a lawyer. You should have a calm mind at any time... The result didn''t come out, did you?" Li Xiaoyue was "scolded" by Mo Shaochen, bit her lip, turned her face to the other side again, and didn''t speak. Mo Shaochen sighed quietly, leaning his back against the windowsill and waiting quietly with his hands in his pockets Jane truss leaned against the wall in a casual posture. He hung his eyes and waited quietly, with a touch of uneasy emotion at the bottom of his eyes There was a trace of entanglement in that mood. Gu mohuai came over, looked back and saw that everyone''s attention was in the examination room, so he whispered, "now is the time to do something..." "Second uncle..." Jian Heng frowned slightly. "Isn''t it appropriate for me to leave now?" Anyway, he is also Jane Mo''s brother. No matter whether you are Gu muhuai''s adopted son or not at the moment, your identity is there... It''s not good to leave after all. "The question is, if you lose this opportunity, when are you going to look for it again?" Gu mohuai said coldly, "there are so many people here. Everyone''s mind is on Jian Mo, and no one pays attention to you." Jane truss looked at the direction of the examination room, clenched his hand, nodded to the end and left. Watching Jian Heng leave, Gu mohuai took back his sight... The contact just fell on Chu Zixiao. Anyway, Jian Mo is also his first love. Even if they are embarrassed by each other''s identity, they have been there since they came here. They don''t come forward to ask. It seems that they are not as anxious as they think? Gu mohuai secretly thought about Chu Zixiao''s Psychology It''s just... There''s only one answer in the end. Jane has no feelings for him. But if so, how could he fall out with Beichen? Chu Zixiao felt the line of sight to examine, and looked at it as he came, just in silence with Gu. Gu mohuai simply walked forward, "I haven''t seen you speak since the wedding. What''s the matter?" "I''m fine..." Chu Zixiao said faintly. Gu muhuai nodded and didn''t say much. He just patted Chu Zixiao''s arm and went to grandma Gu''s side again. With his figure, Chu Zixiao''s vision fell on Gu Beichen, and his vision gradually deepened If he had any doubts before, maybe at this moment, he should clearly know what kind of abyss he has entered. In such an abyss, the only thing he can do is to move forward without any retreat. The atmosphere outside is dignified, and the inspection room is oppressive and breathless. Li Yunze knows that if there is something wrong with Jian Mo''s body, Beichen will go crazy "Dad, how''s it going?" While Li Yunze waited for the test results, he couldn''t help asking when he saw that Li Jiyuan had been feeling his pulse for a long time. Li Jiyuan didn''t answer, but continued to feel his pulse. As a doctor, Li Yunze is used to life and death However, when it''s your turn to the people around you, that''s not the case at all! Li Jiyuan was obsessed with traditional Chinese medicine since childhood. Sometimes western medicine instruments can deceive people, but they can show their form under the hands of traditional Chinese medicine. After more than ten minutes, Li Jiyuan finally stopped. "Dad..." Li Yunze asked nervously as he strode forward almost at the same time. Li Jiyuan heaved a sigh and shook his head, "wait and see the test results." "Why didn''t you find out?" Li Yunze was a little surprised. "Jane Mo''s pulse is a little strange. I''m not sure." Li Jiyuan was obviously weak. Li Yunze was also surprised by such an answer. He still knows his father''s ability. He''s not sure Li Yunze frowned tightly. While waiting for the result, he took his mobile phone and sent a text message to Long Xiao. Now he has doubts in his heart. Although he knows it is groundless, but... Now this situation is too strange. "Yun zefa?" Gu Beichen looked sideways at the Dragon owl, and his tone was completely affirmative. The Dragon owl didn''t hide it and nodded. Gu Beichen''s temples trembled, "is there an inspection result?" He asked, "so Yunze texted you first?" Chapter 429 With Gu Beichen''s question, everyone looked at the Dragon owl. Grandma Gu even stood up anxiously, "Xiao Xiao, how''s Xiaomo?" "It''s not the inspection result," said the Dragon owl calmly. "Yunze doesn''t understand. Let me check something." Gu Beichen frowned at the moment, and grandma Gu''s face became dignified in an instant. They reacted with the same reaction as if they didn''t need to think more... They all felt that Li Yunze wanted Long Xiao to check Shi Shaoqin. The Dragon owl''s face was so cold at all times. He opened his mouth calmly: "wait for Yunze to come out..." The implication was that Li Yunze only mentioned it to him, but didn''t say anything. When grandma Gu heard this, her heart, which she had been carrying, gradually relaxed a lot. However, looking at Gu Beichen''s line of sight, he felt distressed and blamed himself. Gu Beichen didn''t react too much, so he sat there quietly waiting He didn''t know whether the result of this time was the same as before, and he couldn''t check out anything. However, the feeling of powerlessness seeping from the bottom of his heart seemed to make him return to the time when he was in the ink palace Lin Nannan looked at Gu Beichen sadly. After several years of training in the army, he was not the willful "child" who was still following the third brother But when he saw Gu Beichen like this, he suddenly wanted to pull him out to fight! Time goes by with the second hand turning round and round, which is painful for those who wait. "Let''s have something to eat first?" Xiao Jing carried some simple food and water to satisfy his hunger. Although we know that we may not be able to eat at this time, we have more time. Young people don''t care. Grandma Gu and them can''t. "Mom, have something to eat first?" CEN Lanxi asked anxiously. "You eat, I have no appetite." Grandma Gu said and got up, "Beichen, come with me." Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at grandma Gu in a tense mood on his cold face. After the panic at that time, grandma Gu was a person who had gone through great storms and waves, and soon calmed down Gu Beichen motioned to the Dragon owl and Lin Nannan, then got up and left with grandma Gu. On the rooftop of the hospital, the hot sun seems to scorch people. "Grandma..." Gu Beichen saw that grandma Gu didn''t speak and took the lead in opening her mouth. Grandma Gu didn''t look at Beichen. She just looked at the scenery in the distance. After a long time, she said solemnly and slowly, "you can''t fall down, do you understand?" Gu Beichen was silent. No matter how strong and indifferent he is... He will always be a child in front of a grandmother who grew up with him. Grandma Gu turned around with a heroic face and said, "Beichen, I never wanted to put pressure on you... But that''s the trajectory of fate. The more you escape, the more he will face you and let you face it." Gu Beichen frowned faintly. "Life is also a problem, overlapping problems and living through constant solutions. If you survive, that is, thousands of flowers bloom..." grandma Gu paused. "If you can''t survive, go back and finally die." Gu Beichen understands this truth. However, he often understands that it is one thing. When he really faces it, it is another thing. Everyone has something to resist You can be afraid of mice and cockroaches. He can be afraid of heights and water What Gu Beichen is afraid of is the reappearance of that memory! "For Jane Mo, I won''t resist..." Gu Beichen said slowly after a long time. His voice is very calm, no forbearance, no hesitation... And there is no element of forcing himself to face. Grandma Gu''s eyes turned red all of a sudden... She was both happy and afraid. Happy Gu Beichen faced the past directly, but he was afraid that if there was a chance, all his beliefs would be gone. "Grandma, I have nothing to be afraid of now..." Gu Beichen''s voice is still calm, but only he knows how dignified it is under such calm, "but only Mo''er can''t!" "That''s what I''m worried about, Beichen... Do you understand?" "I understand... But I can''t help it!" Gu Beichen sighed and turned to look at the scenery ahead. "Like a person and love a person. Sometimes the difference is whether you can let go or not." Gu Beichen smiled with self mockery, "for Jian Mo, I can''t describe it in this way... I always feel that she is the one in this world that I can miss." Grandma Gu has a sour nose "Mo''er is a very strong person. She doesn''t like to stick to people or play hard to get like other girls." Gu Beichen smiled, but the eagle''s eyes were deep. "When she was with you, she wanted to stick to you... But she always gave each other a reasonable private space." Gu Beichen looked deeper. "Sometimes I wonder why she can''t be the same as those women I used to know? Later, I think this woman is really smart... Because she is born to grasp a man''s heart." "Beichen..." grandma Gu was more and more sad. "Grandma, I happened to hear her chatting with Li Xiaoyue once." The softness on Gu Beichen''s face gradually disappeared. "Li Xiaoyue said that life was eight bitter. Ask her what she felt the most bitter..." Grandma Gu suddenly resisted to listen. "Mo''er thought for a long time..." Gu Beichen seemed to think of the situation that day. "Obviously Li Xiaoyue was joking with her, but she was serious. She said..." Grandma Gu''s heart has been mentioned to the top. Because of Gu Beichen''s pause, she secretly thought: Fortunately, her heart is still strong. "She said... No matter how hard it is, it''s no more bitter than the life of love and blind date leaving death..." Gu Beichen''s words seemed to float from a distant place. They were light but heavy. Grandma Gu''s eyes are red. She can understand when grandson says this now. Even though she had been with the old man all her life, she still couldn''t accept it for a long time when the old man left. Originally, grandma Gu wanted to reason with Gu Beichen... But in the end, she couldn''t say a word because of his sadness. Grandma Gu sighed heavily, "I just wanted to tell you... I support your decision. But if you go back, I''d rather you never stood up... Beichen, do you understand?" Gu Beichen knows grandma''s worry. "Grandma, if Mo''er is for natural reasons, I will accept even if I suffer..." Gu Beichen''s voice came faintly, "but what if it''s not for natural reasons?" "What do you mean?" Grandma Gu''s heart has solidified. Gu Beichen tilted his head to grandma Gu''s line of sight, "in fact, grandma also suspected, didn''t she?" Chapter 430 Grandma Gu was silent and frowned together I don''t know if the original thing left a deep impression and an indelible nightmare, so that what happens now will subconsciously think of Shi Shaoqin. The footsteps of "pedaling" interrupted the grandparents and grandchildren who were looking at each other. Xiao Jing ran up, "grandma, Chen Shao... Madam Shao came out." As soon as Gu Beichen heard this, he immediately raised his feet and dropped his words, "Xiao Jing, you hold grandma..." when the words fell, his figure had disappeared behind the rooftop door. "Hey..." grandma Gu sighed heavily. Xiao Jing stepped forward and helped grandma Gu down. "What does Yunze say?" Grandma Gu asked. Xiao Jing''s face was dignified. "Li Shao said that the potassium exceeded the standard seriously... However, looking at the appearance of Li Shao and Doctor Li, it seems that the result is a little too strange." "Is potassium excessive again?" Gu Beichen looks at Li Yunze with a voice. Li Yunze nodded weakly. "How possible?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were suddenly deep. After the coma and high fever caused by excessive potassium last time, Jian Mo has avoided foods with high potassium... There are even notices about potassium in the villa to avoid it. Li Yunze didn''t need to ask. Naturally, he knew that Gu Beichen would do so, so he felt strange Most importantly, after that discharge, he tested Jian Mo''s blood and all indicators were normal. "How''s Jane Mo doing now?" Gu Beichen asked. "It has been handled, but..." Li Yunze paused, his face more and more dignified, "still unconscious." The Dragon owl stood aside with his hands copying his pockets. His Obsidian like ink pupil was so indifferent that he could not see any emotion. Lin threw his mouth to the south. "Second brother, if you have anything, you can say it all at once. Are you going to hang someone?" Li Yunze stared at Lin to the south, then looked at Gu Beichen and said, "Dad said that Jian Mo has a physical problem, but he can''t be sure now..." As a doctor, the most fear is to meet patients who can''t find out the cause. Now... This is the case with Jane mo. Everyone knows that the so-called "potassium element" exceeding the standard is just a superficial problem. I''m afraid there are other hidden dangers in Jian Mo''s body. Chu Zixiao stood at the door, listening to Li Yunze''s words coming out of the half closed door, and the action of pushing the door also stopped. Hands, gradually shook up. After a while, the palms were full of sweat. Chu Zixiao looked at the person lying on the hospital bed from the perspective window. There was a complex emotion in the depths of his eyes. The ward has been quiet. Except Li Yunze, they basically left. It was originally a high-profile wedding, but it ended because Jane Mo fainted and was hospitalized People make complaints about it, and they sigh, if they are too happy... God is jealous. Su Junli sat in the car. The car never started in the hospital. The original Junya''s face was full of pain It is a kind of pain that can''t let go, but see that the beloved can''t be happy, and let himself completely cut off his thoughts. The mobile phone suddenly rang. Su Junli looked powerlessly and answered the call, "Grandpa..." "Hasn''t Jane Mo got any results yet?" Su Zhenqi asked in a dignified voice. "With..." Su Jun left at this moment, his depressed words were weak, "but he hasn''t woken up yet." Su Zhenqi heaved a sigh and didn''t know how to comfort his grandson. Although Sun Tzu has been opposed to his thoughts for so many years, he still likes Jane Mo very much After all, when she was a child, she was injured because of Junli and saved Junli. Today, I saw the girl walking to the priest with Gu Beichen happily. He was actually a little lost at that time... If Jun Li was successful, his four-year company would have cheated others'' girls. "Grandpa, don''t say it first..." Su Jun said faintly, "I''ll go back now." "OK, drive carefully..." Su Zhenqi answered and hung up the phone. "I know." As soon as Su Junli left, Chu Zixiao came out of the hospital. He walked to his car mechanically, sat in the car, opened the toolbox... There was a small medicine bottle lying in it. The words of the mysterious man flashed in his mind. Chu Zixiao''s hand holding the medicine bottle drooped weakly, and the man also lay back on the seat If the medicine was put in the wine last time, what about this time? In the foam body, I''m afraid it''s not potassium exceeding the standard, but what other drugs have been given? The medicine given by the mysterious man seems to be aimed at excessive potassium... In fact, it is aimed at that medicine at all. That... Even Li Yunze can''t find out the medicine. ¡­¡­ In Mo palace, the noon sun shines with anxious heat around the ancient castle. The workers were tired and lazy one by one, but when they saw Shi Shaoqin standing at the gate of the ancient castle, they were injected with stimulants, as if they had endless strength. It is said that Shi Shaoqin was injured for unknown reasons and the Mo palace was in chaos. It is also rumored that Shi Shaoqin was so weakened that those who had been suppressed wanted to escape one after another. He could only suppress with injury It is rumored that Shi Shaoqin, like a devil, still managed to turn the tide and suppress the riot under such serious injury. Last rumor Shi Shaoqin is now at ease to recover from his injury, while no one can break the myth of Mo palace. There was a shaking sound from the "buzzing" of the mobile phone. Shi Shaoqin didn''t see who it was, so he picked it up and put it in his ear "Qin Shao, Jian Mo fainted at the wedding and hasn''t woke up yet..." a respectful voice came from the other end of the phone. "The hospital gave the results, but the potassium element exceeded the standard. There''s no way to find another reason for this." Shi Shaoqin Feng''s eyes narrowed slightly and then opened, "Li Yunze is a medical genius. Last time he didn''t think too much, this time it''s not necessarily." "Need destruction?" "Don''t..." Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth faintly and glanced slightly to the side. He saw the figure on the glass mirror after the reflection was born. "Things over there have developed naturally and don''t care for the time being." "Yes!" The man answered respectfully, "where''s Chu Zixiao?" "After all, he will come back when he wants to do it." Shi Shaoqin''s pretty mouth gradually raised a thin smile. The other party received the instruction and responded respectfully. After waiting for Shi Shaoqin to hang up, he received the line. "You promised me not to do it yourself because... You have arranged everything and don''t need you to do it at all." The soft voice came with a sneer. Shi Shaoqin didn''t look back or answer. Shi Juxi''s anger dyed his warm face. He only heard him bite his teeth and shout, "Shaoqin!" Chapter 431 Shi Shaoqin turned slowly and looked at the twin brother who didn''t know what anger was from childhood to adulthood. His eyebrows and tail were frivolous "Even without my arrangement, do you think... There will be less things around Chen?" "That''s his business. You can stay out of it, can''t you?" Shi Juxi was angry, "but because of your intervention, many things will become even more difficult!" Shi Shaoqin smiled like a spring breeze. Even Shi juechi, the twin brother, thinks such a smile is too charming... It will make people forget the anger and words they just want to say. "I promise you, don''t move until your lie is finished..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice is in contrast to the smile. It''s as cold as falling into an ice cave. "Juechi, you''d better not try to do anything." Shi Juxi gritted his teeth and clenched his hand. "Because if you do it, I can''t help it..." Shi Shaoqin continued to laugh. "At that time... There was really no room for maneuver." The words fell, he deeply solidified his eyes, and then crossed him into the castle. Shi juechi stood where he was for a long time. After a long time, when his body was a little stiff, he mocked himself and turned around powerlessly and entered the castle He walked up the revolving stairs step by step... Shi juechi only felt weak. What is he going to do to end this? Such a problem, like a needle, pierced Shi juechi''s heart... Whether he pulled it out or kept it, it made him move and hurt. The night in Los Angeles is as gorgeous and erosive as ever. In the VVIP ward of Huakang hospital, the atmosphere was stiff as if it was going to burst people''s hearts. Lin Nan leaned on the wall with his arms around his chest. He looked at Gu Beichen sitting by the hospital bed with a trace of ruffian spirit. Gu Beichen had not moved for several hours, and his face was dignified. When Li Yunze and the Dragon owl came in, Lin Nannan immediately seemed to find a savior. "Boss long, you take care of..." he rolled his eyes dissatisfied, "I''ll go out and get some air." Li Yunze sighed and nodded. The Dragon owl came up to him, pulled a chair and sat down. "There''s news, the same as that given by the Chen family..." he paused, and then said, "Shi Shaoqin has never left the Mo palace." "However, I don''t rule out his remote command..." Gu Beichen''s voice is a little hoarse, "... Isn''t it?" The Dragon owl was silent, and then made a "um" sound. "But now the problem is..." the Dragon owl''s voice came in a low voice. "It doesn''t rule out that someone wants to do something in his name." Gu Beichen slowly tilted his head and looked at the Dragon owl. His eyes had been covered with light red blood, with a heavy and violent breath. "I asked Xiao Jing and Xiao Nan to follow up..." Long Xiao''s voice was always calm. "Yunze is also doing a test here. There should be results tomorrow morning at the latest." Gu Beichen nodded and didn''t speak. The Dragon owl patted him on the shoulder and then got up without saying anything comforting "Jane Mo doesn''t want to see you like this. If you want to take good care of her, should you take good care of yourself?" Li Yunze''s voice was a little angry and looked at the food that didn''t move on the tea table. Gu Beichen heaved a sigh, looked at Jian Mo''s pale face and said, "I know the weight..." When he said this, Li Yunze was speechless for a moment. The owl left the ward with a look. In such a big space, there are only Gu Beichen and Jian Mo in a coma. He attached himself, his thick fingers gently crossed the dried lips of Jian Mo, and gently opened his mouth: "if it''s because of me that I let you bear these... Mo''er, do you understand? It''s more cruel than anything..." Low words came quietly, with complex emotions. There are helplessness, pain, remorse and fear... More importantly, they are at a loss. For Gu Beichen, such hesitation is a straw to suppress all his emotions Thin lips gently cover the lips of Jane Mo, gently kiss the dry lips with white skin, as if trying to moisten her with yourself Gu Beichen closed his eyes and put his hands on both sides of Jian Mo''s body to keep his weight from putting on her. The kiss didn''t deepen or leave Only in this way can he feel her breath and heat at this moment Suddenly Gu Beichen''s eyes suddenly opened. The eagle''s eyes flashed a cold light, and then left Jian Mo''s lips and got up. Staring at Jane Mo deeply, he turned and left the ward. "Third brother..." Lin Nan came from the other end, "where are you going?" He hurried forward. "You stay and look after Mo''er." Gu Beichen kept saying, and had left with great strides. Lin Nan was a little confused. He sighed heavily and turned back to the ward. ¡­¡­ Shen Chu stood in the square of the mall, looking up at the big screen The news that Jane Mo fainted at her wedding is being reported above... It has been bombed since the morning. Sneer caught on the corners of his lips, and Shen Chu''s eyes flashed a touch of malice. "It should be yours, but it''s all yours... If it''s not yours, even if you insist, God doesn''t agree." With a sneer, Shen Chu turned around and left the mall. Today''s wedding, she has no past and no position in the past. As Chu Zixiao said, temporary gain is not gain, only permanent gain is gain. Got on the bus, took out his mobile phone and dialed Chu Zixiao "First of all, Congratulations," sneered Shen Chu, "their wedding didn''t come true." Chu Zixiao''s face was cold. "Are you happy that Jane Mo fainted?" Shen Chu smiled, but then he stopped smiling, "Oh, how can I forget... Jane Mo is your first love!" "Shen Chu!" Chu Zixiao gritted his teeth. "I just feel strange. Jane Mo doesn''t seem to have a hidden disease. Why did she suddenly faint?" There was an obvious meaning in Shen Chu''s voice. "Well, don''t you think you should ask the doctor more?" Chu Zixiao sneered. "Oh?" Shen Chu smiled, "I thought you knew!" "What do you mean?" "What I mean doesn''t matter. What matters is..." Shen Chu narrowed his eyes slightly. "Can you get Jian Mo and I can go back to Beichen, can''t I?" In the world of smart people, there are often many things that don''t need to be said clearly No matter what the initial reason is, as long as we seize the opportunity, we should strive for it, which is the most important. Obviously, this opportunity cannot be missed If, really as she thought, Jane Mo suddenly fainted, it''s not easy! Chapter 432 With the cool breeze of the river, the banks of the Los Angeles River have a unique tranquility at night. Chu Zixiao slowly put down his mobile phone and his vision became deeper and deeper As Shen Chu said, the important thing now is whether he can let Mo Mo return to him. Slightly narrowed his eyes, and Chu Zixiao''s mobile phone rang again in time. He picked it up and saw that it was Tang Yu calling. He picked it up calmly. "Xiao, what''s the situation?" Tang Yu''s voice was a little stunned. "I just got off the plane and heard the news of Jian mo. what''s the matter? Is she all right?" Connected with several problems, showing concern. "Suddenly fainted. It was said that the potassium content in the body seriously exceeded the standard..." Chu Zixiao said faintly, "I haven''t woke up yet." "Where are you?" Tang Yu asked, "I''ll go and have a look." "I''m on the side of the Los Angeles River," Chu Zixiao''s deep eyes are the same as the quiet river. "Beichen is in the hospital. It''s so late... It shouldn''t be suitable for the past." Tang Yu just got on the bus and stopped moving. He always felt that Chu Zixiao''s words were strange, "I went to find you..." "Yes!" Chu Zixiao didn''t refuse this time. Tang Yu hung up the phone, started the car and drove to the favorite place of Chu Zixiao in Luocheng river. When he arrived, Chu Zixiao was sitting by the River drinking, and several beer cans had been poured next to him. Sit down, open one of the cans and have a drink. "So calm?" Tang Yu glances at Chu Zixiao. He knows more or less about this person who is a classmate, friend and partner. "Otherwise?" Chu Zixiao''s voice was cold under self mockery. Tang Yu stared at him for a long time and asked, "Xiao, you are too calm, but I feel uneasy." Jian Mo is unconscious. According to his cognition... Ah Xiao won''t be so calm. Even if people are not in the hospital at the moment, they will not be in this state. That kind of feeling... It''s like he''s not surprised by today''s things, and he''s also waiting for the development of things at ease. "If Mo Mo is around him and I can''t be safe, I won''t continue to let go..." Chu Zixiao said faintly, drank the wine in the beer can in one breath, then got up and walked to the roadside car. Tang Yu didn''t move, but looked back at his distant back and frowned, "ah Xiao, are you planning something?" Asked, he put down the beer can, stood up and chased it. "What are you planning? That''s between me and Beichen." Chu Zixiao answered indifferently. Tang Yu raised and put down his crazy hands, gritted his teeth and said, "this is not between you two, it''s Jian Mo''s thing... Do you understand that love is between two people, not one person." Chu Zixiao opened the door, got on the bus and closed it Through the windshield, Tang Yu looked at each other and opened the window. "If it''s a brother, don''t stop me..." then he started the car and left under Tang Yu''s stunned eyes. Tang Yu thought he came here to make soy sauce, "Chu Zixiao, are you fucking crazy?" He roared towards the car he left, and paced back and forth in his place angrily. He didn''t know how to persuade Chu Zixiao. After a while, he took out his cell phone, called out Gu Beichen''s phone and dialed it "Who?" Gu Beichen''s indifferent and cold voice came with a awe inspiring breath. "Chen Shao, I''m Tang Yu." Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned, "about Zixiao?" "If I have time, can I talk to you?" Tang Yu was worried. He is a lawyer. Naturally, he has the sensitive touch of a lawyer I don''t know why. Today, he feels that ah Xiao''s road seems to be going astray. "OK." Gu Beichen answered, "I''ll be in Huakang hospital tomorrow morning. You can come to me..." "Well, OK!" Tang Yu answered, "that won''t bother you." After hanging up the phone, Gu Beichen''s eyes grew deeper and deeper. "Your suspicion is not impossible..." Li Yunze''s voice came after Gu Beichen hung up the phone, "just, if it''s true..." He didn''t continue to say. There are some things. The speculation period is good. If it''s true Li Yunze frowned. "I''d better wait for my test results in the evening." This time, Jian Mo''s body must not have exceeded the standard of potassium alone. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, looked at the Dragon owl and nodded, "I''ll go back to the ward." The words fell, and the others had turned out of Li Yunze''s office. After Gu Beichen left for a while, Li Yunze said heavily: "if this thing really has something to do with Zixiao, it will be too hard for Beichen." "People, for themselves... There is nothing wrong." The Dragon owl spoke indifferently. Li Yunze left his mouth and had nothing to say except a helpless shrug. The night is already very heavy. For nightlife people, it seems that this is the beginning of the day. Noisy music, crazy twists and turns, and hot close fitting all highlight everyone''s impulse to release their emotions. Under such noise, naturally, some people place themselves in the boundless and endless depth... Push themselves into the dark abyss with their own hands. Chu Zixiao''s apartment was dark. He sat on the sofa motionless, just like a sculpture. The mobile phone flickered on the tea table, and the light of the screen reflected out, which was gloomy. Attached, Chu Zixiao picked up his mobile phone and crossed the text message. Mystery man: if Jian Mo doesn''t take the second pill, he will only continue to faint when he wakes up... Again and again. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were slightly cold and replied: however, if you take the second one, you must have the third one, right? The mysterious man replied quickly: the lawyer''s mind is really clear, and the analysis of problems is also organized. Chu Zixiao''s eyes are heavy: I just want to know if she will depend on this medicine in the end Mystery man: nature! Chu Zixiao sneered: good means... You used my mind and controlled not only Beichen and her, but also me. Mystery man: Unfortunately, it''s too late for you to know now... It was the wrong start when you gave her the first pill. But even if you don''t let her eat, her body will collapse. Xiao Chu: what did you give her? Mysterious man: when you should know, you will know... But the only thing I can tell you is that the medicine given to you is really the thing to solve the previous medicine on Jane mo. However, this thing has only a certain period of validity in the body... After that, it will naturally appear today! Fortunately, this medicine has not many side effects except dependence. Chu Zixiao grits his teeth: why should I trust you? Mystery man: you can''t believe it... Anyway, Jane Mo''s life and death has nothing to do with me. Looking at the text message, Chu Zixiao had a gloomy feeling... As if he could feel the sneer of the other party. Chapter 433 The next day, the originally beautiful weather in Los Angeles became overcast after a strong wind in the middle of the night. Gu Beichen didn''t sleep all night. In the morning, except for some dark accumulation in his eyes, he couldn''t see a little fatigue from his cold face. Like sleeping beauty, Jian Mo is quietly "sleeping" and motionless. The doctor came to inspect the room, and all the experts and attending doctors slipped away. However, after checking, each one still looked dignified. In the case of simple foam, except for the treatment of diluting potassium in the body, it has no effect at all Such a result has become doubt in the eyes of doctors. It''s no surprise that Gu Beichen arrived. Some things are not naturally formed, but man-made, so it is not so difficult to explain. When the atmosphere in the ward was dignified, Li Yunze came in with a file folder on his mobile phone "Li Shao!" The doctors greeted one after another. Li Yunze and the crowd nodded, and then came forward to Jian Mo, "how about it?" "Drug dilution didn''t work." Said an elderly doctor. Li Yunze''s face was as dignified as when he came in. He nodded, "it''s hard for you." "Li Shao, you''re welcome." The older doctor said, "if it''s all right here for the time being, let''s go to another room first?" Li Yunze nodded until they left, and then handed the file folder in his hand to Gu Beichen, "look." Gu Beichen took it and opened it... The eagle''s eyes drooped slightly. After browsing quickly, he seemed to look at it again indefinitely. Suddenly raised his eyes and looked at Li Yunze with a slightly cold line of sight. "As you can see..." Li Yunze''s voice was a little heavy. "Last time when boss long left, he gave me a silence sample, and I couldn''t find a breakthrough... Later, I found that this is basically a basic drug, that is, it will cause disease!" "And then?" Gu Beichen''s voice congealed, and even his breathing became heavy. "I''m not sure if there is silence in Jane Mo''s body, because... Even if there is, it''s also because the traces are covered after the lesion." Li Yunze tells the truth. Gu Beichen suddenly closed his eyes, but even so, Li Yunze still saw the sudden murderous spirit at the bottom of his eyes. With a heavy heart, Li Yunze continued, "but now it''s just speculation... After all, we''re too limited. Our thoughts always think it''s him. Such a direction will sometimes imprison us." Gu Beichen opened his eyes, but in a moment, he had recovered his calm. At the right time, there was a vibrating sound from the mobile phone. He picked it up, saw it was Tang Yu''s, and picked it up "Chen Shao, I went to the hospital." Tang Yu''s voice came, "excuse me, where can I see you?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, "see you in the leisure hall in the East Restaurant of the hospital. I''ll go down right away..." "OK, I''ll wait for you!" Tang Yu''s voice showed respect. He and Chu Zixiao are friends, and Gu Beichen is Chu Zixiao''s little uncle. In terms of seniority... He should always be polite. "I''ll go and see the situation first..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo uneasily. "I''ll talk about it later." Li Yunze nodded, "I''ll take care of it here. I''ll come to the South later..." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, coldly copying his pocket with one hand and strode out of the ward. East Restaurant leisure area. Tang Yu saw Gu Beichen coming and hurried up, "Chen Shao." "Sit..." Gu Beichen said faintly to the waiter who followed him, "black coffee." "OK, just a moment, please!" Gu Beichen looked at the waiter and left. He just looked at Tang Yu calmly, "what do you want to ask?" Tang Yu and Gu Beichen don''t have much contact. At most, they have seen and impressed each other. When he was sitting face to face at this moment, he felt that the lingran momentum emanating from the man was a little oppressive. "Ah Xiao and..." Tang Yu paused and then said, "you know what happened with Jane mo. I just think there''s something wrong with ah Xiao recently... So..." "So come to me and see if something happened between us?" Gu Beichen looked at Tang Yu with indifferent but familiar eyes. "Did you meet Zixiao last night?" Although it is doubtful, it is obvious that it has been confirmed. Tang Yu nodded and asked after seeing Chu Zixiao''s doubts last night: "Chen Shao, I have no way to judge the feelings, and I have no qualification and position." After a pause, he continued, "but as a friend of ah Xiao, I have the right to ask, if the relationship between Chen Shao and Jian Mo is based on hurting ah Xiao, will I really be happy?" "Do you think love needs concession or plunder?" Gu Beichen asked indifferently. He said "plunder" rather than "fight" Lawyer Tang Yu is instinctive and likes to grasp words. He also knew clearly that people like Gu Beichen would not say anything wrong. "You mean..." Tang Yu was a little uncertain. "I don''t care if I don''t give in, Zixiao has fallen into a dead end..." Gu Beichen''s voice is still calm and indifferent. "Isn''t that why you came to me today?" People with bright eyes don''t talk in secret. Tang Yu''s heart suddenly startled, "Chen Shao, ah Xiao is your nephew, leaving Jian Mo alone... Do you want to see him like this?" "Otherwise?" Gu Beichen slightly raised his eyebrows. "People will wake up only when they are in pain. Now, the more I do, the deeper he will sink." Because you understand, you will know. Tang Yu''s face was a little dignified. At the right moment, the waiter brought the coffee. Gu Beichen took a drink. The bitter taste eased the originally tight nerves a little "Tang Yu, instead of worrying about what he will do with me, I think..." Gu Beichen put down his coffee cup. "What you should worry about is that he will be used by someone with a heart." "Impossible!" Tang Yu immediately rejected it. "Why?" Gu Beichen asked. Tang Yu was stunned and said, "you should know ah Xiao''s character best. He is too conceited. Although his shortcomings are obvious, he knows clearly... It''s difficult to be used." "Hope..." Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep and youyou opened his mouth. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao stood in front of the VVIP ward and looked through the visiting window... His sight penetrated the middle of Li Yunze and Lin Nannan and fell on Jian Mo''s face, whose face was still pale. He held the medicine bottle tightly in his hand, as if to crush it. I knew it was a trap before, but he was still fascinated and drugged. Now Chu Zixiao swallowed it secretly and looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight, gradually floating up to Shen Li. "Xiao Zi?" A voice came from one side. Chu Zixiao looked sideways and looked up at Gu Beichen''s line of sight Chapter 434 "I''ll come and see if she''s awake..." Chu Zixiao said calmly, and then calmly put the medicine bottle in his hand into his pocket. Gu Beichen looked at Chu Zixiao''s action without changing his face. Without much thought, he walked forward. "I have a court this morning. Come back." Chu Zixiao opened his mouth calmly and looked strange. My nephew and my uncle, in the negotiations again and again, all the good things no longer exist. When it was so ambiguous, it immediately caused an uproar in Los Angeles. Even, some people ridicule Gu Beichen. If he is frustrated in love, his career will fall to the bottom of the double "harvest". Grandma Gu turned off the TV, and there was not much expression on her face after years. "Old lady, would you like to talk to the second young master?" Aunt LAN asked with worry on her face. With the help of aunt LAN, grandma Gu went out of the villa She doesn''t worry about things in the mall. If Beichen doesn''t have this ability, it''s just a greater disaster for the emperor to keep it. Now, she is worried about whether Jian Mo''s body and the emperor''s event will crush Beichen. ¡­¡­ As Shen Chu arrived at the emperor''s meeting with Shenzhen Airlines, she stood in the conference room of "negotiation" four years ago. She said in her heart that it was not too much to be mixed. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and looked at Jian truss, and fell on Shen Chu who came in. The corners of the mouth are gradually scratched. If there is nothing, it makes people look calm, but forced to smile. Shen Chu''s eyes were cold, but he looked at Gu Beichen and took back his eyes. Jian Heng is right. Only when one person''s height is equal to that of another can she have the right to speak. Beichen, since you disdain to look at me... I can only try to stand higher than you, so you have to look. Gu mohuai and Jian truss sat opposite, forming a strange atmosphere. One represents the emperor and the other represents JK, but it is "father and son". Shen Hangzhi and Shen Chu sat down one by one on the side of Jian truss. In the small conference room, the atmosphere suddenly became condensed. Before the shareholders'' meeting was officially held, Gu Beichen still had temporary control over JK, but unfortunately, there were less than ten people in the meeting room, but most of them were against him. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing suddenly handed Gu Beichen his mobile phone when the atmosphere was dignified and people couldn''t breathe. Gu Beichen took it and lowered his eyes On the screen, Lin Nannan sent a text message: third brother, third sister-in-law wake up! Chapter 435 Just a few words, it''s like the backbone has been found. When Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, a shallow smile crossed his eyes That smile is a feeling of slight relief. Everyone''s eyes fell on Gu Beichen, and they didn''t know whether he was more crushed at ordinary times. Everyone was wondering what he saw at this moment? Gu Beichen''s drooping eyes covered all the emotions in his eyes, but there was no emotional overflow on his indifferent face. His fingers quickly crossed the screen and sent a text message. He pressed out his mobile phone and handed it to Xiao Jing. His indifferent voice overflowed his thin lips and said, "meeting!" Jian Mo was lying on the hospital bed with no spirit. When she saw Lin Nan handing her mobile phone to her, she couldn''t fan her eyes Wait for me! Everyone knows that Gu Beichen said it to Jian mo. The corners of Jane Mo''s mouth slightly hooked a thin smile. Even if she pulled out such a smile, it seemed very difficult for her. "Third sister-in-law, you are really my third brother''s lucky star..." Lin Nan took his mobile phone and played with it in his hand. "Third brother is estimated to have burst out of combat effectiveness at the moment?" He had some admiration. "When you wake up, the third brother is expected to crush those counsellors." Jane Mo''s eyes are gray and want to laugh, but she is sad. "Don''t worry, the second brother won''t let you have anything..." Lin Nan saw through Jian Mo''s worry and said, "you have to accompany my third brother down." Jane Mo drooped her eyes, and her long eyelashes covered the mood at the bottom of her eyes. This time is different from the last time. Before that, she won''t be in a coma for so long, and she won''t wake up like this... Obviously, there''s a big problem with her physical condition this time. Li Yunze pushed the door and came in. He checked Jane again. He didn''t say much, but comforted her. Jane Mo is very quiet. Everyone is an adult, not a child... Many things can be noticed by herself. "Yunze, can you tell me the truth?" Jane Mo opened her mouth gently, and her voice was a little dull. Li Yunze and Lin Nan looked at each other, sighed deeply, and simply pulled over the chair to express their concerns "You mean I might have been drugged?" Jane asked calmly. However, it was because it was too calm that people were not sure about her mood. "This is just my guess," Li Yunze said calmly. "After all, it may be some causes that have not been confirmed in medicine." Jane nodded and said nothing more. Lin Nan looked at her with some worry, "third sister-in-law?" "I''m fine..." Jane Mo said calmly. When she suddenly fainted the day before yesterday, she thought a lot in a mess. Perhaps, her fate is like this, there is no room for a little, okay! Self mockingly hooked the lower lip corner, and Jian Mo looked at Li Yunze, "does he know what you think?" Li Yunze nodded. Jian Mo was silent again. No matter whether he had a physical problem or was drugged... In fact, what kind of consequences made him sad. "I''m a little tired..." Jane Mo wants to be quiet. Li Yunze and Lin Nan looked at each other. "You go to sleep first. The south is outside. If you''re not comfortable, ring the call bell or call him." "Yes." Jane answered. Li Yunze and Lin Xiangnan went out. They both knew that she was not tired, but wanted to stay alone for a while. Some sadness, for strong people, do not like others to see. The emperor''s meeting is full of wisdom and courage, and the sound of the outside media is in full swing Chu Zixiao opened a court and came back to the hospital more than one o''clock. The emperor''s meeting is not over yet. Lin Nan is already on his way to the airport. Li Yunze is in the operating room because of a temporary operation Chu Zixiao was informed by Jian Heng early in the morning that JK will take action today. He knows very well that the next step will be the Emperor Standing at the door of VVIP ward, Chu Zixiao looked at the door handle with deep eyes... There was the complexity under the final tangle in the bottom of his eyes. Pushing the door open, Chu Zixiao went in. He looked at the hospital bed and saw that there was no one above. He frowned slightly and subconsciously looked at the window Jian Mo just turned around and looked at Chu Zixiao. At that moment, there was an indescribable emotion flowing between them. "When did you wake up?" Chu Zixiao broke the silence and asked. "Morning..." Jian Mo''s voice was still weak. "Did you close the briefcase on the sofa and eat?" Jane nodded. The atmosphere fell into silence again, with embarrassment. "Have we reached the point where we have nothing to say?" Chu Zixiao''s voice was a little heavy. Jane Mo lowered her eyes, "I just have no strength..." Chu Zixiao looked at such a simple foam, and his heart was suddenly wrenched. "Shall I pour you a glass of water?" Jane Mo raised her eyes and nodded. Chu Zixiao turned and went to the water dispenser, took the cup and came out to pick up the water The sound of water flow is particularly harsh in the quiet and strange ward, and people can''t help being nervous. Jane Mo sighed and walked to the sofa. She couldn''t stand any longer. At the right time, something slipped into the water, and the slight dissolution sound was covered by the sound of running water. Chu Zixiao looked at the water in his hand, got up straight, closed his eyes, opened it, and turned to Jian mo. Jane Mo took the water cup and didn''t know whether it was to hide embarrassment or she was really thirsty... She held the cup and began to drink. Looking at the water entering Jian Mo''s mouth bit by bit, with the sound of swallowing, after a while, she drank all the water... Chu Zixiao''s men grasped it consciously. There is no way back and no way back... Completely, no more! Put down the glass, Jane Mo wanted to say something to break the rigidity of the atmosphere at the moment, but she didn''t know what to say. It was not until the sound of pushing the door came that Jane Mo breathed out. Li Yunze just got off the operating table. When he came in, he saw Jian Mo in such a stiff situation, frowned secretly, and said with unchanged face: "when did Zixiao come?" "Just now!" Chu Zixiao looked at Li Yunze and then looked at Jian Mo, "I''ll go to the court later. You have a good rest... I''ll come back to see you later." Then he and Li Yunze nodded, took the briefcase and left. Li Yunze waited until Chu Zixiao left, his eyes fell on the water cup in front of Jian Mo, his eyes crossed a little different, but said calmly, "I''ll check it for you again." Jane nodded and went to the hospital bed to lie down. After a general examination, Li Yunze said, "we still need to take blood for testing." Then he took the blood drawing utensils and other things, and drew blood for Jian mo. From beginning to end, he seemed to be the same, but he knew... What his heart oppressed. Li Yunze took Jian Mo''s blood into the laboratory, got everything ready, pressed the button of the instrument and waited quietly When the "Ding" came, his heart went up to his throat. At the moment when the result was printed by the machine, he stared... When he saw the result, his pupils dilated instantly. Chapter 436 Li Yunze''s breathing was a little short. The potassium in Jian Mo''s body had not decreased. He also had a test before his operation However, at this moment, the potassium concentration in her blood has fallen to a safe value! As soon as he knocked Yunze''s fingers on the keyboard, he even went to the monitoring room to check the results. Last night, Beichen suspected For the sake of safety, they installed micro monitoring in Jian Mo''s ward. During the vacuum period at noon, people from Jianmo company came, Li Xiaoyue, Mo Shaochen and aunt lan... Finally, Chu Zixiao. Everything is normal for people to see, but there are four people who let Jane Mo touch through her mouth. Mu Xiaoran, aunt LAN, Li Xiaoyue... And Chu Zixiao. Aunt LAN and Li Xiaoyue are impossible. Then, there are only mu Xiaoran and Chu Zixiao left! Li Yunze can''t judge who it is. He wants to come to the USB flash disk, copy the monitoring during this period, and delete this video from the file. ¡­¡­ "That''s all for today''s meeting," Gu Beichen looked around indifferently and got up coldly. "JK shareholders'' meeting will be held normally tomorrow afternoon." Words fall, he has one hand to copy the pocket of indifference to leave. The rest of the people in the meeting room didn''t move. Their expressions were secretly gloomy. After looking at each other, they had a cold fundus. Under such circumstances, if Gu Beichen can turn the tide... Then they seem to have to pay more attention. After Gu Beichen got out of the conference room, he called Jane first. "Are you better?" "Is the meeting over?" The two voices sounded at the same time. "It''s over. It''s under control." Gu Beichen heard Jian Mo''s voice was obviously light and relieved. "I''m much better too..." Jane Mo said with a smile. "I''ll be there in a minute!" Gu Beichen is not at ease. "There is Yunze here. You don''t have to worry... You deal with things first." Jane Mo said with a smile, "the husband needs to refuel so that the wife can not worry." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep and gently answered, "well." After hanging up, Gu Beichen called Li Yunze, "how''s Mo''er?" "I was weak before noon, and now I gradually recovered..." Li Yunze looked at the test results and opened his mouth faintly. Gu Beichen''s eyes were suddenly cold. "It means... It''s really man-made!" "You..." before Li Yunze spoke, the door of the office was pushed open. When he saw the Dragon owl coming in, he said, "the Dragon boss is coming." Looking at the time, Gu Beichen said, "I''ll be there in an hour." After hanging up, Gu Beichen went to the office and held a secret video conference temporarily. The time was not long, only about 20 minutes After the opening, as he walked out, he told Susan and Xiao Jing, "pay attention to the closing trend today." "I know!" Xiao Jing answered and pressed the elevator for Gu Beichen. When taking the bus to the underground parking lot, Gu Beichen slightly closed his eyes and took a nap. The sound of "Ding" came at the same time. When I opened my eyes, I was already slightly tired. Gu Beichen went to the hospital and went to the ward without looking for Li Yunze. When I opened the door, I saw that Jane Mo was seriously replying to the text message with her mobile phone. "Ah Chen?" When Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen, his eyes lit up and couldn''t reply to the text message. He got up and hugged him. Gu Beichen instinctively hugged Jian Mo, "the spirit looks good." "Much better than in the morning..." Jane Mo looked up slightly. Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo deeply... His face was obviously pale and ruddy. Attached to the body, gently fell a kiss on her forehead, gently as if afraid to kiss her, showing caution. Jane Mo closed her eyes and felt him. It''s really good! "Play mobile phone as soon as you have spirit?" Gu Beichen got up and was dissatisfied. "I''m not playing, I''m working..." Jane Mo said in a hurry. But when looking up at Gu Beichen''s deep eyes, he knew he was frying himself. He couldn''t help but say, "there was a job that hasn''t been completed before, so..." Gu Beichen sighed, stroked Jian Mo''s hair and said softly, "I''ll find xiayunze." Jane Mo nodded with a smile, stood on tiptoe, kissed Gu Beichen on his face and let him go. When Gu Beichen got out of the ward, she turned around and replied to the text message: if you are satisfied with the architectural drawing, I will start to do the internal design recently. Shao Shi: first cultivate your body. Don''t worry about others. Jane Mo: Well, thank you! Shi Shaoqin looked at the text message sent by Jian Mo and smiled at the corners of his mouth It seems that Chu Zixiao''s second pill has been given to Jian mo. "Has the news from Interpol been released?" Shi Shaoqin asked leisurely. "Listen to the following people, they were spread out..." said Morson. Shi Shaoqin''s smile gradually deepened, and a pair of Feng''s eyes showed a familiar cold. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen pushed open the door of Li Yunze''s office, nodded with the Dragon owl, and asked, "Mo''er fainted suddenly. It seems that good is also sudden?" "It was drugged..." Li Yunze sighed, took his mobile phone, opened a report and handed it to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen took it indifferently and looked down "The drug maniac Charles wanted by Interpol was arrested at 2:37 p.m. local time in New York yesterday..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly at the report until one place, and his eyes were cold in an instant. "Charles explained that a new drug has been developed recently, which can amplify the potassium element in the patient''s body and cause false anemia... This drug can cause the patient''s intermittent cerebral nerve disorder and coma due to insufficient blood supply to the brain." Gu Beichen''s eyebrows were already frowning, and the breath in the office became dignified because of the momentum that permeated him. "Under the investigation of Interpol, Charles made ten pills of this drug and seized nine... One of them flowed out and the other nine have been destroyed. Interpol is tracking down the outflow of the drug." ¡°¡­¡­¡± "After an investigation all night, Charles finally explained that the drug was bought by a mysterious man, and the other party just transferred it to him... The two sides didn''t meet directly..." Gu Beichen slowly lowered his hand, and the eagle''s eyes looked coldly at Li Yunze, as if asking something Li Yunze sighed, "after my operation, I tested Jian Mo, and the excessive potassium in her body that hasn''t gone down quickly fell to the safe value..." In this way, it is not difficult to explain why people who haven''t woken up in the morning become obviously energetic now. "I''ll fly over there and see Charles in person." The Dragon owl opened his mouth, and there was ice cold in his cold voice, "if this medicine is in Jane Mo''s body, he can solve it!" Gu Beichen nodded, looked at Li Yunze and asked, "where''s the monitoring?" His voice was so faint that one could not hear his emotions. Chapter 437 Li Yunze took out a USB flash disk from the drawer and gave it to Gu Beichen. "I''m not sure if there are two people. Have a look for yourself..." Gu Beichen took it, put it in his pocket, nodded slightly with the two men, turned out of the office and went to the ward. "Beichen is not afraid of him, just like me." Li Yunze was worried. The Dragon owl looked indifferent. "What''s the point of surviving in such an environment?" As soon as Li Yunze heard it, he swallowed it secretly and didn''t dare to say anything. Looking at the time, the Dragon owl said indifferently, "contact me if there is a situation here." "OK..." Li Yunze answered and sent the Dragon owl out. He endured it, but he still spoke out his concern. "What if there is no antidote?" The Dragon owl stopped and didn''t turn around. He just looked at the faint mouth in front of him, "then do it!" Light three words, showing a cold bloodthirsty. Li Yunze sighed heavily and watched the Dragon owl leave with his own concerns He didn''t say it because he knew that the Dragon owl might have considered it long ago. When the plane flying to Lyon, France climbed with a roar, the Dragon owl looked at the big words "La" through the small window, and his thoughts were a little wandering. I felt it with someone. It was just a moment... He was cold-blooded in those days, but he had a little friction with Shi Shaoqin before he accidentally "met" Beichen. Seeing Beichen as he was, no one wants to see him back ¡­¡­ Jane Mo wants to ask Gu Beichen about JK. She just saw the overwhelming news on the Internet. Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at Jane Mo''s tangled appearance. He frowned slightly and asked, "what''s the matter?" Ink pupil crossed worry, "isn''t it uncomfortable again?" Jane Mo came forward, hugged Gu Beichen''s waist and put her face on his chest, "I''m fine... I''m not uncomfortable at all now." Gu Beichen sighed and hugged Jian Mo tightly. "Are you done?" Jane Mo asked in a low voice. "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered. "I read the report that JK''s shareholders'' meeting will be held tomorrow..." Jian Mo was a little hesitant. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep. "If you want to ask me if it''s the same as four years ago, I''ll be more willing to answer because Shen Chu''s heart is soft." Jane Mo raised her head and smiled at the corners of her mouth, "if I ask, how do you answer... Um..." Gu Beichen replaced the answer with a deep kiss. Like you long, his thick tongue churned in Jian Mo''s mouth and absorbed her sweet beauty. Until Jian Mo''s breath became thick, he was unwilling to let go "Is that enough?" Gu Beichen asked in a hoarse voice. Jian Mo finally came into contact with the air, breathed heavily, and ruthlessly gouged out his eyes and looked at Beichen. Gu Beichen took her into his arms, and his voice came from the top of the hair. "That acquisition was not what the outside world said... But, from the beginning, I only planned to hold shares in JK. The so-called acquisition is just a cover up." Although Jane Mo completely trusts him now, she is still very happy to hear his explanation. "Ah Chen, shall we go back?" Jian Mo knows from Lin Nannan that Gu Beichen hasn''t had a rest since yesterday. She is distressed. "I want to sleep for a while, but I don''t want to be in the hospital. Will you accompany me?" Jian Mo''s tone is somewhat capricious. Where does Gu Beichen have the heart to refuse? "OK..." Gu Beichen answered and said to Li Yunze. After taking some medicine, they left the hospital. Today, the people behind are still behind. However, Gu Beichen and Li Yunze know that Jian Mo''s "disease" is no problem for the time being. But how much explosive power is hidden behind, only waiting for the news of the Dragon owl. Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo and closed his eyes. Jian Mo found a comfortable position in his arms and closed his eyes Although I''ve been "sleeping", it''s a coma, not that the body really goes into sleep. At this moment, she was supposed to sleep with Gu Beichen, but without much effort, Jian Mo gradually entered the sleep state. The second hand ''Da, Da, Da'' is turning, and there is only a uniform sound of breathing in the bedroom. Gu Beichen fell asleep in Jian Mo for ten minutes before slowly opening his eyes Drooping his eyes and looking at Jian Mo''s serene appearance, Gu Beichen gently pulled out his arm. "Mmm..." Jane Mo gave a restless cry, turned over and continued to sleep. Seeing that she didn''t wake up, Gu Beichen gently got out of bed, wrapped his nightgown, took his mobile phone and USB flash drive, and went to the study with light hands and feet. Plug the USB flash drive into the computer, link the video recorder, and open Gu Beichen lay back in his chair, and eagle eyes looked at the picture deeply... The content of the vacuum period intercepted by Li Yunze. When Chu Zixiao leaned over to pick up the water and inched under the visual dead corner of his left hand, Gu Beichen pressed the pause button. Mo Tong suddenly became familiar with the bottom. He took back his sight on the video device and fell on the computer. His slender and powerful fingers beat on the keyboard. After a while, he entered the video frame decomposition interface. Frame by frame, Gu Beichen''s eyes blinked Suddenly Gu Beichen stopped the action in his hand and looked at the third water cup that was not completely covered by Chu Zixiao''s body with cold and deep eyes Then zoom in! After Chu Zixiao''s left hand moved, a large number of bubbles flashed in the water cup. Such large bubbles will not appear when connected with purified water. Unless... He put something in it. Gu Beichen slowly lay back on the seat, and the cold breath gradually overflowed from the depths of the eagle''s eyes From the beginning, he always believed. No matter how Zixiao opposes Mo''er, he can''t do anything to hurt Mo''er. But now, the more I believe, the more I hurt! Thin lips gradually overflow with a mocking smile, but I don''t know whether I''m mocking myself or Chu Zixiao. After taking his mobile phone, Gu Beichen dialed Xiao Jing. "Chen Shao?" "What''s going on over there?" Gu Beichen spoke indifferently. "Everything is expected..." Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and said in a low voice, "check all the details of every occasion when Zixiao appeared and Jian Mo was also there." Xiao Jing frowned, "Chen Shao means..." "Check first!" Gu Beichen spoke coldly. "Well, I see." Xiao Jing answered. When Gu Beichen was about to hang up, he suddenly asked, "Chen Shao, is the meeting still open at 9 p.m.?" Gu Beichen looks at the time. It''s only more than five o''clock in the afternoon "Open!" Gu Beichen spoke indifferently. "OK, I see." Gu Beichen answered and hung up. His eyes fell on the computer screen again. Gu Beichen supported the armrest of the chair with his arm and his chin on the back of his hand. The eagle''s eyes gradually narrowed... The bottom of his eyes was completely angry under the cold. In my mind, I crossed Jian Mo from the first accidental fainting to all kinds of things now. Chapter 438 Gu Beichen went back to his bedroom. Jian Mo slept soundly. He took off his nightgown, lay down gently beside Jane Mo, put her in his arms again, closed his eyes and planned to sleep for a while However, even if I didn''t sleep day and night, I didn''t feel sleepy at all at the moment. Close your eyes, but your head is running all the time. Last night, when he felt that things seemed beyond his control, he began to doubt It''s just, that doubt is just a doubt. When the doubt is further confirmed, at that moment... Even the cold heart will hurt. He hugged Jane Mo a little, and Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes. The soles of his eyes were cold. ¡­¡­ The soft and soothing piano music filled every corner of the restaurant, which gradually relaxed the nervous mood of diners. Chu Zixiao picked up the red wine glass and sipped it. As if drunk, the mellow fragrance left an indelible aroma on the taste buds and swallowed it. "You''re so sure..." Chu Zixiao put down his glass and looked coldly at Shen Chu opposite. "Beichen will lose tomorrow?" Shen Chu''s action of cutting steak stopped. "The ending has been decided, hasn''t it?" "What I know about Beichen, whether it was before or now..." Chu Zixiao coldly raised his eyebrows, "... He is a person who can turn around the defeat while everyone is talking and laughing." "Then you mean, no matter what you do, in the end... Jane Mo will only be his!" Shen Chu sneered. Chu Zixiao immediately frowned. "Zixiao, you said, we cooperate..." Shen Chu''s voice was cold. "When we embarked on this road, no matter success or failure, there was no way back." "Indeed..." Chu Zixiao said slowly. "I want to take care of Beichen, no matter what he is..." Shen Chu clenched his hand with a knife and fork and loosened it again, "even if he has nothing!" Chu Zixiao sneered, "only he who has nothing... Will it be possible to focus on you?" Anger suddenly appeared on Shen Chu''s face, and then he recovered his calm. "If attacking me can make you more fighting spirit, it doesn''t matter." Paused, "I''m curious... What way do you want Beichen to give up Jianmo?" Chu Zixiao picked up the glass again, with a gray color in the fundus of her eyes. Just, while lifting the wine glass with drooping eyes, he covered all the. "This is my business, so you don''t need to worry..." Chu Zixiao said faintly, "JK, I advise you to use more heart, otherwise... Your only chance to turn the table is gone." Shen Chu looks at Chu Zixiao and knows that he is not aimless. In Gu''s family, I''m afraid no one knows Gu Beichen better than Chu Zixiao except grandma Gu Because in his childhood, he looked up at and worshipped the man. The close age makes them have no difference in generations, but it also leads to the tragedy of liking the same woman now. Shen Chu put down his knife and fork, took the red wine and drank it When the scarlet liquor overflowed the taste buds, she had the feeling that her blood was fishy and sweet. The next day, it rained in Los Angeles. Not big, but it makes people feel depressed. The media are waiting for the result of the contest between JK and the emperor in the rain. Their enthusiasm has not decreased at all because of the rain. Jane Mo stood in front of the French window and looked at the continuous drizzle outside. Her mood was inexplicably depressed. "The meeting has been going on for two hours. The loss of JK''s absolute control will cause damage to the Emperor..." In the TV, the capable voice of the host came, and in the sound from the radio equipment, the sound of raindrops beating the umbrella could be vaguely heard. "Young lady, have some sugar water?" Aunt Luo put down the soup cup in her hand. Jane Mo recovered, smiled and nodded at Aunt Luo and walked over. Aunt Luo took a bowl of stewed bird''s nest tremella soup and gave it to Jian mo. she smiled and asked, "Madam Shao is worried about Chen Shao?" "Hmm..." Jian Mo''s hand holding the spoon was a little weak and drooped his shoulder. "Aunt Luo, what kind of family is Gu''s family? How do you feel that it''s embarrassing him?" "Isn''t there an old lady standing beside him with you forever?" Aunt Luo said with a smile, "many families are not harmonious, seemingly in harmony... But there are more rich families." Jane Mo, think about it, too Isn''t it the best explanation that Jane Chang and she are strangers now? "The meeting is over, Shen Hangzhi, Gu Heng and others have come out..." Suddenly, there was a nervous voice on TV. Jian Mo stopped drinking soup and looked... A group of reporters had rushed forward, asking questions regardless of the rain. Shen Hangzhi got on the bus with a dark face all the way, blocked by his assistant and secretary. When Jian Heng arrived, he stopped, but he didn''t answer the reporter''s question... Finally, he looked back at the group logo on the emperor building and got on the car. Jane Mo flapped her eyes, and a text message came in. She put down her spoon and hurried to see it. Seeing that it was sent by Susan, she hurriedly opened it Susan: Madam, everything is under chenshao''s control, and JK''s controlling stake is still in the emperor. Jane Mo''s heart, which she was carrying, gradually came down... Even her nose was a little sour and her fundus was a little fuzzy. After taking a deep breath, Jane Mo smiled and sent a text message to Gu Beichen: her husband is great! Gu Beichen looked at the text message, his eyes were deep, and his thin lips smiled like nothing... But the moment he raised his eyes to Gu mohuai, he became very cold. "Second uncle, some things are lost. It''s often not easy to get them back." Gu Beichen said coldly and turned coldly to walk outside the meeting room. When he came to the door, he suddenly stopped, "the emperor''s shareholders'' meeting is probably the only chance for the second uncle." Gu muhuai always smiled at the corners of his mouth, not deep or shallow... Until Gu Beichen disappeared from his eyes, he gradually gathered. "Gu Beichen, I want to see..." Gu murhuai''s voice came coldly, "how can you turn the world around again." Without the knowledge of JK''s senior management, all of JK''s loose shares were privately acquired by Gu Beichen. This situation led to the emperor''s absolute control over JK can no longer be reversed. While Gu Beichen''s foresight was widely reported in the news, he said that he was cold-blooded and ruthless... Incidentally, it seems that the constant topic is always his tenderness, and now he is only for Jane mo. Chu Zixiao looked at the news report and the file on his desk was open [Yang Ziyu was suffocated by pressing the toilet in prison. He was a former manager of Jinyang and was jailed for commercial fraud...] Impressively, the file showed a gloomy smell. Chu Zixiao took his mobile phone and opened the screen. There is also a message from the mysterious person who has not quit: the third pill is the most critical and must be taken within three days after taking the second pill. After that, you are in control of the fourth pill, which will be the key to whether you can be with Jane mo. Chapter 439 Chu Zixiao calmly deleted the text message, and gradually dialed Jian Mo''s phone Jane Mo looked at her mobile phone and frowned slightly. She answered the phone heavily, "Zixiao..." "Are you feeling better?" Chu Zixiao''s voice came quietly, making people unable to hear his emotions. Jane Mo took a breath, "much better..." "Do you have time?" "What are you doing?" Jane Mo was almost instinctively nervous. "If you have time, come to my law firm." Chu Zixiao looked down slightly and fell on the front file. Jane Mo frowned. "Is there something wrong?" Her question was very careful. "Remember Yang Ziyu?" Chu Zixiao asked again. Jian Mo was stunned at first, then widened his eyes, "Yang Ziyu?" Her voice rose higher involuntarily. "What''s the matter with him? Isn''t he in prison?" After asking, she became nervous. "Is something wrong? Or... Is he out of prison?" "Things are a little complicated. Let''s talk when you come here..." "OK, wait for me, I''ll go there now..." Jane Mo said, hung up the phone and hurried upstairs to change clothes. When she hurried downstairs, aunt Luo just came out of the kitchen with cakes in her hand and looked at her, "young lady, you..." "I''ll go out!" Jane Mo opened the door, "don''t tell ah Chen." When the voice fell, the figure of Jian Mo had disappeared outside the door Aunt Luo frowned, put down her things and called Gu Beichen. Although Mrs. Shao looks better, no one dares to leave her alone. After listening to Aunt Luo''s report, Gu Beichen called the bodyguard who followed Jian Mo, "if you go to see Chu Zixiao, report at the first time." "OK!" The bodyguard man answered. "Squeak -" The car stopped at the law office of Chu and Tang Dynasties. Because the rain was not particularly heavy, Jian Mo didn''t hold an umbrella and trotted in The bodyguard man looked at the sign of the law firm and called Gu Beichen. "Chen Shao, Miss Jian entered the Chu Tang law firm." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed in an instant and looked at Xiao Jing driving, "speed up." "Yes!" Xiao Jing answered and stepped on the accelerator. He saw that the pointer of the meter "brushed" to the other side. Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was dignified, and a pair of ink pupils were already deep and dark. Thin lips gradually pricked up and became a straight line, showing his tension at the moment ¡­¡­ Jane Mo rushed into the law firm. The busy people inside looked at her and were stunned at the bottom of their eyes. "Jane Mo?" Tang Yu is studying a case with Ye Fan. It''s her. It''s an obvious accident. The moment Han Zhenzhen saw Jian Mo, his eyes became complicated, disgusted and disgusted... He lived with jealousy because of love. Tang Yu stepped forward, "come to find ah Xiao?" Jane Mo nodded and looked at the direction of Chu Zixiao''s office. "Are you feeling better?" Tang Yu asked. "Much better..." Jane Mo pulled at the corner of her mouth, "thank you." Tang Yu said with a smile, "just be healthy... Ah Xiao is in the office." "I''ll go in and find him..." Jian Mo said, nodded with some people he knew, and went to Chu Zixiao''s office. "She has become a little aunt, still eating and looking at the pot..." Han Zhenzhen''s disdainful voice came when Jian Mo passed her office. Jane Mo stopped and looked at her Han Zhenzhen looked at her coldly. In that way, it was a sense of instant vision that "you are afraid of being said about your own virtues". "Some eat and some watch, but they are not qualified to be seen by some people..." Jian Mo sneered. While Han Zhenzhen''s face changed, he took back his sight and walked to Chu Zixiao''s office. Ye Fan looked at Han Zhenzhen and sighed softly. In school, although Jian Mo was not as "active" as she is now, she was definitely not a bully. "Zixiao, what does Yang Ziyu''s case mean?" Jane Mo asked hurriedly when she was already in the office. Look at Xiao shuichu, sign her to sit down and pour Xiao Mo first "Yang Ziyu is in prison..." with the sound of the water, Chu Zixiao said indifferently, "dead!" Jane Mo was stunned for a moment. When she recovered, she had some complex emotions in the bottom of her eyes... However, at the thought of what this scum man had done to Li Xiaoyue, she felt she deserved to die. "The prison transferred the case to my hand..." Chu Zixiao''s voice came faintly. "It''s possible that the person who killed will be transferred to Xiaoyue law firm." Jane Mo suddenly widened her eyes, "how can this be?" "In addition, Yang Ziyu''s wife Jin Shuman is out of prison..." Chu Zixiao''s voice is calm from beginning to end. He puts the water cup in front of Jian Mo and slowly opens his mouth, "do you think there''s any way to let Xiao Yue leave for a while?" Jane Mo wrung her eyebrows and Xiao Yue didn''t say, but she knew very well... Xiao Yue was angry about it. She has always liked Mo Shaochen very much. She used to worship, but now she has more and more contacts. It is obvious that she is in love... But she has been stagnant because of that thing. Xiao Yue is a proud person, but now she has low self-esteem... Only when there is no one, lick her wound. Jian Mo subconsciously reached for the cup and slowly handed it to her lips Chu Zixiao''s eyes moved deeply with Jian Mo''s action. When he saw that the cup had reached his lips, his eyes flashed like a devil. Jane Mo raised her hand and opened her mouth The sound of "bang" came suddenly, and Jian Mo and Chu Zixiao were startled almost at the same time. Glancing at the sound, Gu Beichen stood at the door. The door was pushed open and hit the wall and bounced back "Ah Chen?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen in surprise. Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao looked at each other, but for a moment, there was a fight between lightning and flint. The atmosphere was suddenly stiff. Jian Mo slowly got up and looked at Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao. He was a little confused All the sight outside fell in Chu Zixiao''s office, but Gu Beichen''s back blocked most of the sight. "What''s going on?" Ye fanning asked Tang Yu aside. Tang Yu also frowned strangely and shook his head. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing reminded. Gu Beichen walked in coldly "Ah Chen, what''s the matter?" Jane Mo frowned and asked, "Why are you here?" Looking over the cup of Shuimo in Chu''s hand, Zichen''s eyes dropped to the north. "Mo''er, go out first..." Gu Beichen''s voice was soft, but he couldn''t say anything. "Ah Chen?" Jane Mo''s eyebrows wrinkled deeper. "Good, huh?" Gu Beichen looked at her with eagle eyes. Jane Moruo nodded at the corner of her lower lip. After looking at Chu Zixiao, she turned and walked out Xiao Jing came forward and closed the door. However, at the moment of closing, Jian Mo turned back and looked at the confrontation between his nephew and his uncle Chapter 440 The closed door blocks the view and sound inside and outside. Because it is a law firm, it often involves privacy and maximizes the sound insulation. "What''s going on?" Someone asked the people in a low voice. The person on one side also shook his head blankly, indicating that he didn''t know. Lin Fan and Tang Yu looked at each other with worry in their eyes. "Tang Yu, do you want to go in and have a look?" Lin fan asked anxiously. "Do you think you can get in?" Tang Yu slightly picked his chin and looked at Xiao Jing. Xiao Jing and Jian Mo are standing not far from Chu Zixiao''s office. As long as it is not too hot inside, it is impossible to hear the distance of conversation, and no one will have a chance to get close. "It''s so weird..." Lin Fan frowned and looked at Jian Mo who was worried. Tang Yu shrugged and just looked at Han Zhenzhen with a look of resentment. He looked around at everyone in the circle, "have you finished handling the cases in your hands?" As soon as they heard this, they quickly took back their eyes and hung their heads. But what they are doing and thinking is probably only clear to them. "Xiao Jing, what''s going on?" Jane Mo looked anxiously at the closed door and asked. "I don''t know..." Xiao Jing grinned and looked innocent. Jane Mo rolled her eyes. "Don''t you know?" She didn''t believe it at all. "Won''t they fight?" "Er..." Xiao Jing scratched his head. "Young lady, we are all adults." Jane Mo didn''t ask, but her face was still worried... But she completely ignored the ambiguity in Xiao Jing''s words. There was confusion outside, and Chu Zixiao''s office was dignified. It''s like the air has condensed, making people unable to breathe. Gu Beichen put the water cup in his hand on the desk, and Chu Zixiao''s line of sight also fell on it all the time "Zixiao, many times, many things, I''d rather be simple..." Gu Beichen slowly opened his mouth, his sight still fell on the water cup, and his voice was filled with faint disappointment. "Fight, that''s the way men solve." Then he slowly raised his eyes and looked at Chu Zixiao... But in an instant, a terrible shot came out. "However, the last thing I want to believe is that you will hurt her..." Gu Beichen''s voice has a suppressed anger, as if it could erupt at any time. "I won''t hurt her!" Chu Zixiao said coldly. "Really?" Gu Beichen said softly. His voice was very light, but it showed invisible force. Chu Zixiao frowned slightly. Gu Beichen took out a neatly folded envelope from his pocket and held it up to his eyes Chu Zixiao looked and frowned more. Gu Beichen coldly threw the envelope on the table, "Zixiao, you let me down!" "What do you mean?" Chu Zixiao frowned. Then he came forward, took the envelope and opened it Almost every contact with Jane truss, there are photos! There are road control shooting, monitoring pictures and pictures under the monitor, with different intelligibility. Gu Beichen just looked at the slight changes on Chu Zixiao''s face. All the photos here, even the dead corners of many angles... He used all the people who had relations with the Dragon owl to find them. Chu Zixiao continued to turn, and when he saw that in the emperor''s club, Jian Chang pretended to be a waiter to put medicine into Jian Mo''s wine, he immediately widened his eyes. Something seems to explode in my mind For a moment, Chu Zixiao seemed to understand something. That day, Jian Heng said that he had given himself a chance. He didn''t just give Jane Mo drugs, but also drugs that damaged her body. From beginning to end, the mystery man may be a game A game that makes you have no way to turn back! He was a little short of breath. Chu Zixiao looked at the photos one by one, even... And the snapshot of his first pill for Jian Mo in the hospital that night, as well as the one at noon yesterday. Suddenly raised his eyes, Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen with a dark face. "I don''t want to believe that all this has your participation from beginning to end..." Gu Beichen''s voice has been cold and ruthless. "However, you have given me such a wonderful situation." The night before yesterday, he began to suspect that after he came back to Mo''er step by step, all kinds of investigations he had contacted with Zixiao were clear This is a precise game. Jian Heng made use of Zixiao''s feelings for Mo''er to set up such a game that he can''t turn back and forgive! Gu Beichen sneered, "Oh, Zixiao, if this is your love... Mo''er can''t afford it!" Hands, gradually clench tightly, Chu Zixiao''s photos have changed shape. "Whether you can afford it or not, you don''t count now..." Chu Zixiao said coldly, "Beichen, Mo Mo, will come back to me after all!" "Oh?" Gu Beichen sneered, "then... Why don''t we try?" So far, what''s the way back? In this bureau, when the first pill was fed to Mo Mo''s mouth, he already knew it was a trap However, what if it''s a trap? He just wants Jane Mo back to him! "If you want to try with foam body," Chu Zixiao sneered, "Beichen, the way you love her is just like this!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were suddenly cold, and two shocking lights projected into the past Hold your hand in an instant. The sound of the dislocation of the joints of the ''Gaga'' came, with wild anger. "You can drink Xiaomo, but if Xiaomo doesn''t appear..." Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was vaguely bloodthirsty. "Li Yunze can''t help it, can he?" Chu Zixiao sneered. The sound of "Gaga" came again, with a cold and fierce breath Then, with a bang, Gu Beichen hit Chu Zixiao in the face. The punch was not light, but Chu Zixiao didn''t completely avoid the temporary reaction. The whole person was beaten and lying on the desk. "Chu Zixiao -" Gu Beichen was as mad as crazy. He gnashed his teeth and stared at his scarlet eyes. He looked at his nephew like his brother, and the disappointment of his eyes filled his whole body. Jane Mo''s heart suddenly shook, and she didn''t hear the conversation inside. However, the movement of the punch was too loud, as if it had fallen on her heart. "Did they fight?" Jian Mo looks at Xiao Jing nervously. Xiao Jing looked blankly, "no?" The innocent man with his excellent acting skills blinked his eyes, "young lady, did you hear anything?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth. Looking at Xiao Jing''s serious and confused appearance, she couldn''t help doubting her ears. Gu Beichen looked at Chu Zixiao, "do you know what medicine Jian Chang gave Mo''er?" Chu Zixiao wiped the corners of his mouth with the back of his hand. His mouth was like a fishy sweet smell like rust, with a gloomy smell He got up and looked gloomy. "What did he eat for Mo Mo? It''s all because of you..." Chu Zixiao''s nursery rhyme bit his teeth. "Gu Beichen, it''s because you''re with Mo Mo that brought so many disasters to her --" Chapter 441 Gu Beichen''s heart suddenly seemed to be pierced by a needle. It felt as if he was going to defeat his strong city wall All the counterattacks became powerless at this moment. As Zixiao said, all the root causes of Mo''er''s pain come from him. If it had not been for the fight between him and his second uncle, Yuanda and Jian Zhanfeng would not have been involved. If it hadn''t been for her mother''s anger over the death of her aunt and uncle, Jane Zhanfeng wouldn''t have died, and then Sumer was unconscious... Leading to her death two years later. If it weren''t for him, Mo''er wouldn''t be drugged He is the root of everything! His breathing became rapid, as if to cover up such a fact. Gu Beichen''s fist had once again waved to Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao was on guard this time, and one of them leaned over and hid... Fight back in time. "Beichen, are you angry?" Chu Zixiao''s voice was indifferent. "You know better than anyone... If it weren''t for you, Mo Mo wouldn''t suffer from all this, even if life was hard. It''s all because of you..." Gu Beichen''s face is getting darker and darker, and Junyan is already full of haze. "Don''t add your fault to others..." Gu Beichen gritted his teeth. "Do you know what medicine Jian Chang gave Mo''er?" They are in a not very big office, fist you come and I go "This medicine will destroy Mo''er''s body immunity and lead to nervous system disorder, which may paralyze..." Gu Beichen gritted his teeth. "It is more likely to become a vegetable!" The swept things fall to the ground ''crackling'' or make a loud noise when hit. Chu Zixiao''s face was a little frightened, but then changed, "I''m giving her medicine, and you stopped it!" "Are you sure the medicine you gave her has no side effects?" Gu Beichen gnashed his teeth. "It''s better than not trying, isn''t it?" Chu Zixiao fought back. After the "bang" sound, there was a sound of heavy objects falling. Jane Mo stared at Xiao Jing and wanted to come forward without saying anything "Young lady!" Xiao Jing calmly blocked Jian Mo and smiled, "men sometimes solve problems by being a little violent... But, just as you women solve problems, it''s reasonable to quarrel." The people in the law firm have stopped their work. Although the office is soundproof, such a loud fight can''t be stopped. Everyone looked at each other and didn''t know what to do. Finally, they all looked at Tang Yu. Tang Yu swallowed secretly and felt a headache for the two people fighting inside. "Xiao Jing, get out of the way!" Jane Mo''s voice is tough and can''t be ignored. Xiao Jing''s scalp was numb and grinned secretly: Jian Mo and Chen have been young for a long time, and even their momentum has been infected. "Madam Shao, it''s really not suitable to go in at this time..." Xiao Jing sighed lightly. "Although some want to cover up, I believe... No one wants you to see them like this, whether it''s Chen Shao or Chu Shao." Jane Mo held her lips tightly and pinched her hands, "get out of the way!" It''s not that she is capricious. Compared with them, she doesn''t want to let her see... She doesn''t want to see it because her relationship between ah Chen and Zixiao is getting farther and farther. Seeing that Xiao Jing didn''t move, Jane Mo bit her teeth, pushed him away while Xiao Jing didn''t notice, and then pushed the door open "Young husband..." Xiao Jing''s words didn''t have time to stop. Jian Mo had opened the office door. At the right time, Chu Zixiao''s cold voice came. "If you want Mo Mo''s body to collapse, Gu Beichen, you can continue!" Jian Mo stopped his action in an instant, looked at Chu Zixiao blankly, and then fell on his strange posture, as if he had saved the water cup. Slightly staring, Jian Mo looked at the water cup. It should be the glass of water that Chu Zixiao poured for her before Eyes are full of doubts, Jane Mo doesn''t understand, two people fight, there is still time to "rescue" a glass of water? There was something strange in the atmosphere. Gu Beichen suddenly looked back... He saw that Jian Mo''s hand was still on the doorknob and stood there with a puzzled face. When Chu Zixiao saw Jian Mo, he frowned lightly, put the water cup away, and the man stood up. The two men fought for a long time, but except that Gu Beichen''s first punch was on Chu Zixiao''s face, they seemed to have a tacit understanding with each other and avoided each other''s appearance. "Xiao Jing..." Gu Beichen said coldly. Xiao Jing hurried in with a slight chill in his heart and secretly complained. With a look in his eyes, Xiao Jing didn''t need Gu Beichen to explain anything, but nodded slightly. Gu Beichen said nothing, but strode forward, took Jian Mo''s hand and walked out "Ah Chen?" Jane frowned. Gu Beichen didn''t say anything, but took her and went out of the law firm under the attention of the people. The rain outside has been a little heavy. Gu Beichen didn''t say anything. He took off his suit and put his coat on Jian Mo''s head. "Take my car back and let Xiao Jing drive back." Jane Mo was a little blocked in her heart. She wanted to ask something, but she didn''t know what to ask... It made her a little out of breath. When she got into the car, Jane Mo subconsciously looked at the law firm... Because the car started, the law firm gradually disappeared in the bottom of her eyes. Xiao Jing took the water cup, went to the tea room of the law firm, sealed his mouth with plastic wrap, and then took Jian Mo''s bag and wanted to leave However, just turned around, Xiao Jing suddenly stopped. He didn''t look back, but said heavily: "Chu Shao, among all people, you shouldn''t be opposed to Chen Shao..." then, he tilted his head slightly, glanced back, turned and left. Along the way, Jane Mo didn''t speak, but twisted her fingers uneasily. The depressed atmosphere in the car would burst her heart, and the feeling that something was about to come out made her anxious. "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo couldn''t bear to see and opened his mouth to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen didn''t look at her Jane Mo bit her lower lip, "ah Chen, up to now, do you want to hide it from me?" Gu Beichen is still unmoved, but drives the car "seriously". "Stop!" Jane Mo yelled capriciously. "Squeak -" The harsh sound of tires rubbing the ground came, and Jane Mo instinctively rushed forward and then bounced back by the seat belt. Without saying anything, Gu Beichen loosened his seat belt, opened the door and got out of the car. Jane Mo is a little confused about the current situation She looked around. The car stopped on the way to the villa in the middle of the mountain. There were no people and no car... Even if the roadside branches were luxuriant, it also showed a feeling of emptiness. Jane Mo''s breathing is a little heavy. Because of this, her chest rises and falls. The rain has stopped and the air is completely wet. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen standing on the roadside, taking his pocket with both hands, bit his lip and got out of the car "Ah Chen?" Jane Mo''s voice was full of complex emotions. Gu Beichen''s voice came after a while, "what do you want to ask?" Jane Mo tightened her hand on the door. Because Gu Beichen''s helpless voice made her nose sour, "my body looks strange and will suddenly faint..." she bit her teeth. "Is it because of Zixiao?" Chapter 442 Gu Beichen didn''t answer or even move. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo''s face gradually became sad, "isn''t it?" She tried to bear it, but the swelling feeling in her heart made her sad and unable to hold on. Ah Chen went to Zixiao and focused on her water cup. They fight... Zixiao says ah Chen doesn''t care about her body! Along the way, she thought a lot Her health has always been very good. Suddenly, Li Yunze couldn''t find the root cause. When she fainted in the office, Zixiao took her to the hospital... After that, she seemed to be better by a miracle. Not dizzy, more energetic, as if nothing had happened. She fainted at the wedding and was still weak when she woke up... Even when they came to see her at night, she was in bad spirits. However, after Zixiao saw her, her spirit improved obviously... Even, it seemed that it was a matter of a moment. She couldn''t figure it out before because she didn''t think deeply and wouldn''t think about it. But when everything is connected together... Coincidence, it''s not coincidence. The eyes became red gradually, and a thin layer of water mist filled the fundus of the eyes, which gradually blurred the proud back in front. "You tell..." Jian Mo''s hand slipped feebly from the door, and her voice was filled with despair. "Isn''t it? Isn''t it... Isn''t it?" Finally, she couldn''t bear the fluctuation of her mood and roared loudly. Gu Beichen painfully closed his eyes, then opened them and turned slowly The eagle''s eyes were already stained with crystal black pupils. Gu Beichen''s heart suddenly tightened, as if he had been severely pinched. He came forward and took Jane Mo into his arms... Gu Beichen held her tightly, as if she would suddenly disappear. Tears, at the moment of closing your eyes, eventually fell down The hot cheeks fell on the corners of the mouth and fainted in the mouth with a salty taste. "Ah Chen, I don''t want to leave you..." Jian Mo''s voice seemed to be strained in an instant, "I don''t want to..." Because of uneasiness and fear, her body began to tremble uncontrollably. Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo more tightly, as if he wanted to integrate her into his body "Won''t leave... Won''t!" In the low voice, there was a deep pacification, but it seemed that no one could pacify. Jane Mo closed her eyes tightly and hung her hands powerlessly She clenched her teeth to prevent herself from crying, but her tears were flowing uncontrollably. She can''t imagine what will happen next? Or die It seems that there are only two results in front of us. Live or die! But either way, she can''t accept ¡­¡­ Xiao Jing sent the water directly to Li Yunze "What is this?" Li Yunze looked at the water cup and frowned slightly. "It''s from Chu Shao..." Xiao Jing''s voice was a little low pressure. "Chen Shao estimated that there were some antidotes for the drugs in Mrs. Shao''s body." As soon as Li Yunze listened, his eyes brightened and he got up quickly. Li Yunze''s mobile phone rang before his hand touched the glass Seeing that it was the Dragon owl, he quickly picked it up, "dragon boss, what''s the situation over there?" The Dragon owl is standing in front of the Interpol headquarters building in Lyon, France with one hand and a pocket The morning sun shone on him and pulled his tall figure long. "People see..." the voice of the Dragon owl is so indifferent that people can''t hear the emotion. Listening to the low voice of the Dragon owl, Li Yunze''s face gradually became frightened, until finally, his breathing became heavy. He slowly put down his hand and hung up the phone. The whole person was a little stiff in place. "Li Shao?" Xiao Jing felt something wrong with Li Yunze and his sight was slightly frozen. "It takes half a year to make diluent drugs..." Li Yunze''s breathing is weak, "and Jian Mo''s body can''t last for half a year!" Xiao Jing suddenly frowned. "The problem now is... To dilute all the drug residues in Jian Mo''s body, four pills in a course of treatment!" Li Yunze''s eyebrows gradually frowned, "if there is no inference error before, Jane Mo has taken two pills." Li Yunze and Xiao Jing subconsciously looked at the water cup they brought Obviously, this is the third one. But... According to the investigation, the professor of Medical College of Los Angeles University used one pill before. That is to say... Li Yunze can''t extract and test this medicine! "Jian Chang''s vicious heart..." Xiao Jing clenched his teeth and clenched his hand. "He not only calculated Chen Shao and his sister, but even... Calculated Chu Shao." Originally, he could have one more, but he calculated that Chu Zixiao was not at ease and asked him to take one for test Breathing, became heavy, and Xiao Jing''s eyes gradually became dark as he stared at the glass of water. "What now?" Xiao Jing asked, gritting his teeth. "This glass of water can''t have an accident..." Li Yunze''s breath is unstable. "Call Beichen to bring Jian Mo here. Within three days after taking the second pill, she must take the third pill." Because he swallowed nervously, Li Yunze suddenly looked at Xiao Jing and hurriedly asked, "how long has this glass of water been?" Xiao Jing frowned and thought for a while. From the beginning when Jian Mo entered the law firm "About two hours." Li Yunze''s pupils dilated instantly, "let Beichen have to be here in half an hour... This medicine takes more than three hours. Because of its water-soluble characteristics, the efficacy will be volatilized slowly." Xiao Jing didn''t dare to delay, so he hurriedly called Gu Beichen Gu Beichen is as crazy as driving his car on the streets of Los Angeles In less than half an hour, when the harsh sound of "Zhi -" echoed in the hospital, it attracted everyone''s attention. Gu Beichen got out of the car, opened the door of Jian Mo, pulled her and ran to Li Yunze''s office... He didn''t even dare to stop all the way. "Come on!" Li Yunze also looked nervous when he saw people. Jian Mo didn''t even have time to ask. Gu Beichen was already nervous, but carefully handed her the water cup. "Drink..." Gu Beichen''s voice coagulated. Jian Mo looked at him, Li Yunze and Xiao Jing, and finally picked up the water cup and drank all the water. However, when the water entered her stomach, she didn''t know whether it was because she knew it was medicine. She only felt nausea for a while. The cold sweat overflowed uncontrollably. Jian Mo was afraid of Gu Beichen. He could only endure the nausea. "Isn''t it uncomfortable?" As soon as Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gathered, he immediately looked at Li Yunze, "what else did the Dragon boss say?" Chapter 443 Li Yunze looked at the cold sweat on Jian Mo''s forehead, felt heavy, endured it, pulled the corners of his mouth and shook his head. Gu Beichen''s eyes suddenly gathered, but he turned and recovered his calm, "take a rest first, and then go?" He looked at Jian Mo and asked, "if you feel uncomfortable, Yunze is there." Jane Mo nodded gently. "Let me open a ward..." Li Yunze thought and said. "Yes." Gu Beichen calmly answered, and then several people left the office together. Jane Mo doesn''t know whether she took the medicine or not. She just feels a little weak. She''s not as energetic as before. "Get some sleep, huh?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes deeply coagulated Jane foam, looked at her and held her in her arms for a while, "I won''t go." Jane Mo knows she''s too willful, but she can''t help it now When Gu Beichen said she couldn''t go, she even dragged his clothes like a little girl. The panic in her heart was full of Jane Mo''s nerves. She clenched her teeth tightly, slowly released Gu Beichen''s clothes and nodded. Gu Beichen gently released Jian Mo, watched her lie down, covered her with a quilt, and sat down on the chair beside the hospital bed... He grasped her hand and tried to reassure her. Even the sound of breathing can be heard in the quiet space. Xiao Jing leaned against the wall with his arms around his chest and hung his eyes. He didn''t know what he was thinking I don''t know how long it took, Jian Mo gradually entered the sleep state, and the dark cyan at the bottom of her eyes was dark. The door of the ward opened gently and Li Yunze came in His sight fell on Gu Beichen''s hand holding Jian Mo, then looked at Jian Mo and asked, "what are you going to do next?" "Does the fourth pill have to be taken?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer the question. "Yes!" Li Yunze''s face was dignified. Xiao Jing suddenly stood up, "I''ll find Chu Shao..." "He probably won''t give it to you!" Li Yunze said calmly. Xiao Jing''s face was cold, "steal, rob... There''s always one, you can get it." Li Yunze didn''t speak. Xiao Jing had this ability. He didn''t doubt it. The question is... What if it''s not just about drugs? This is what he is worried about, and also what boss long is worried about The drug has side effects, and the drug maniac is not sure... Because the drug has not undergone effective clinical trials at all, no one can guarantee what will happen. "Zixiao''s purpose is to her..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, his voice was very light, like a lover whispering, "things have come to this point, he won''t let go." Xiao Jing suddenly clenched his hand and closed his eyes, as if suppressing impulse. "Chen Shao, do you want me to lead you by the nose?" Xiao Jing asked, gritting his teeth. Gu Beichen didn''t answer. He just looked at Jian mo. gradually, the ink pupil was so deep that people couldn''t see to the end, "maybe..." Just said two words, Gu Beichen didn''t continue. Li Yunze and Xiao Jing''s hearts were raised to their throat because of waiting, but the Lord stopped talking. "Maybe what?" Li Yunze asked in a low voice, gnashing his teeth. If he hadn''t considered that Jian Mo was sleeping, he would have wanted to beat Gu Beichen. "Wait..." Gu Beichen said without reason. Xiao Jing and Li Yunze looked at each other. Almost instantly, they both understood one thing. This is the rhythm of Beichen ¡­¡­ The roaring engine is driving on the road with arrogance and impatience Chu Zixiao suddenly stepped on the brake when he saw the car parked on the roadside in front of him. Pull the handbrake, loosen the safety belt and open the door... All actions are done at one go. Chu Zixiao came forward and waved his fist when Jian Heng looked at it Jian truss easily dodged and looked at Chu Zixiao who was already crazy. He smiled at the corner of his mouth, "such a fire?" "Jian Heng, are you still not human?" Chu Zixiao gnashed his teeth and looked at Jane truss and shouted, "Momo is your sister... How can you prescribe medicine to her?" Jane truss frowned invisibly, "what do you mean?" "Was it the medicine you gave to Mo Mo at the emperor''s club?" Chu Zixiao squeezed out every word from his teeth. Jane stringer frowned. I don''t know how Chu Zixiao suddenly asked this? "That''s why you came to me?" After Jane truss relaxed, her smile deepened, "I''m not giving you a chance?" Chu Zixiao was completely angry, "don''t say it like for me... You just want to use me to control Beichen." Jane Joong smiled. "I never hide my purpose, have I?" "There''s only one pill left..." Chu Zixiao gritted his teeth. "Jian Chang, if Mo Mo''s health is not good, I won''t let you go." Then he took a deep look at Jian Chang, turned and walked to his car. Jane stringer frowned, as if at a loss about Chu Zixiao''s words, "what''s the last grain left?" He lowered his eyes and murmured. In a flash, his mind turned and he looked up quickly. "Chu Zixiao!" Chu Zixiao stopped and slowly looked back at Jian truss. "I''m still saying that. If you want Xiaomo to return to you, you should seize the resources in your hand..." Jian Chang''s words were ambiguous, and a pair of eyes keenly observed the changes on Chu Zixiao''s face. Chu Zixiao didn''t doubt anything because he had the idea of entering the Lord first, but slowly clenched his hand... After looking at Jian truss angrily, he turned and got on the car and left. Jian truss watched Chu Zixiao''s car leave and couldn''t help whispering: "is Xiaomo''s wedding faint because someone drugged? And Chu Zixiao thought it was the time of the club?" He coagulated his eyes and thought about Chu Zixiao''s expression and words again. He couldn''t help but look a little shocked. It looks like At the club, it seems that someone has done something to Xiaomo and is also using Chu Zixiao''s feelings for Xiaomo? "Who is it?" "Who also wants to control Gu Beichen?" said Jian Heng in a daze Then he got into the car and dialed Gu mohuai''s phone Listening to Jian Heng''s words, Gu mohuai knew a lot. "Second uncle, who do you think it is?" Asked Jane truss. Gu mohuai smiled at the corners of his mouth and thought about it. He just said slowly, "no matter who it is, the purpose is the same... What does it matter?" His voice was filled with a smile, "the enemy of the enemy, that is a friend!" "I see." The truss answered. "You just reacted very quickly..." Gu muhuai said with a smile, "let Chu Zixiao and Gu Beichen fight first, and the play will be good!" Jane truss answered and just wondered, "I just don''t know what medicine the other party took for Xiaomo?" "Why, still care about this sister?" Gu mohuai is light. Jane truss quickly restrained her mind, "I''m just curious..." The sun gradually disappeared behind the hotel. "Yesterday, it was reported that Interpol had caught a drug addict... You can go and see the news. Maybe it''s related?" Chapter 444 It was night when Jane Mo woke up At the beginning of the Lantern Festival, the lantern River converges into a charming scenery at night. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo fanned her eyes and looked up at Bei Chen. Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a faint radian, "are you uncomfortable?" Jane Mo felt it seriously and shook her head, "No." Li Yunze has told Gu Beichen about this result The back medicine will have side effects, with dependence... It''s normal for Jane Mo to feel uncomfortable at that time, because the two pills are taken too close. "Then get up and wash, go eat first, and then go home?" Gu Beichen asked softly. Jane Mo nodded with a smile. "I''ll tell Yunze..." Gu Beichen said. "Well, good!" Jane Mo slept for a while. Without the uneasiness and cowardice at that time, she seemed to restore her full of self-confidence. Gu Beichen kissed her on the forehead and got up and left the ward. Just, at the moment of closing the door Whether it was Jian Mo inside or Gu Beichen with his hand still on the doorknob, the original softness on their faces gradually became stiff Seeing Gu Beichen coming in, Li Yunze said to the phone without changing his face, "well, I know..." after a pause, he continued, "I have something here. I''ll talk about the rest later." The Dragon owl slightly narrowed his eyes, made a indifferent "um" sound and hung up the phone. "Dragon boss''s?" Gu Beichen sat down opposite Li Yunze with a calm voice. Although it is a doubt, it is obviously certain. Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth. Just when he wanted to deny it, he listened to Gu Beichen calmly say: "when does the fourth pill need to be taken?" Li Yunze glanced and felt that it was impossible to cheat sensitive Gu Beichen. "Boss long said that he would take the third pill about half a month after taking it. It depends on his body. It may be ahead of time or back off..." Li Yunze shrugged, a little weak. Yes, he is a medical genius, but there is only one in the world like Charles. There is a kind of weakness called "natural gap"! Li Yunze can suddenly understand why others and those people at home "crowd out" him. There are some things that can''t be compared with a talent no matter how hard they try. "I''ll take Mo''er to eat first," Gu Beichen didn''t ask deeply, "together?" "Don''t go..." Li Yunze shook his head, "wait for Jinxi to come over." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and left without saying anything. The office was quiet again, and Li Yunze rubbed his temples "Hey... I don''t know what Beichen and Zixiao can talk about?" Li Yunze murmured in some distress. ¡­¡­ "What are we going to eat?" Jane Mo got on the car, fastened her seat belt and asked with a smile. Gu Beichen started the car, "what do you want to eat?" "Huamorin thought?" Looking at her bright eyes, Gu Beichen raised his thin lips, "OK." In view of the experience of eating fried rice noodles when Jian Mo just came back last time... Gu Beichen knows that there is no parking space in front of the night market. He simply parked his car at the door of a shopping mall not far away, and then took Jian Mo''s hand and strolled past like many little lovers. "Isn''t that Gu Beichen and Jian Mo?" "Didn''t you say you fainted at the wedding? It''ll be all right so soon?" "Gu Beichen will accompany her here... Jian Mo doesn''t know that it took several years to meet such a loyal dog and gold man!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Two talents entered the scope of the night market, and someone found it with sharp eyes. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo ignored the people''s attention and comments. One was indifferent and ignored, and the other was that they didn''t want to put their mind on those people. "Have you eaten anything here?" Jane Mo looked around with a smile on her face. "No!" Gu Beichen answered. Jane Mo glanced at him, "there''s no milk bag... He hates these." "Well, because like me!" Gu Beichen said with a smile. Jane Mo couldn''t bear to roll her eyes. "I think you are proud and charming... In fact, there are many delicious food here. When I was abroad, I miss here most... That..." Suddenly, Jane Mo shouted excitedly and pointed in one direction. Gu Beichen looked and saw that there was a long line like the fried rice noodles stall. "What?" Gu Beichen asked in response to the situation. Jane Mo grinned, "milk and egg mash..." and she took Gu Beichen to line up. "You used to eat here?" Gu Beichen asked. "You said those two years?" If you don''t want to finish cooking, you''ll be here again "Isn''t it time to queue?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane was stunned and said angrily, "not everyone has to queue up!" Gu Beichen smiled faintly at the corners of his mouth. Jian Mo knew he had been fooled It feels good like nothing happened. She overdraw his kindness heartlessly. He looked at her with a cold smile and played smart. Jian Mo seemed to have not eaten several meals. From the street to the end of the street, she was still holding a small box of fried potatoes in her hand. "Open your mouth..." Jian Mo poked a potato with a bamboo stick and handed it to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, some disliked, but he still opened his mouth. "Is it delicious?" Asked Jane moqiang, who was forced to buy and sell. Gu Beichen sighed, "if you say it''s not delicious, you''ll be forced to eat the second one. My answer is delicious!" Being read through, Jane Mo skimmed her mouth, "let''s go to ''another meal''?" "Still eat?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at Jian Mo''s stomach. "Eat with you..." Jane Mojiao smiled and raised her eyebrows. "You didn''t eat much except for a few bites I forced you to eat." Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and his thin lips overflowed with a smile, but in an instant, he reached the bottom of his eyes. When they arrived at another meal, it was almost half the dinner time. Fang Xilan also saw their reports. Seeing that Jian Mo looked good, she went to cook after a few words of concern. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen was silent and opened his mouth. "Huh?" Jane Mo, with a small potato in her mouth, fanned her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen curiously. Gu Beichen thought for a while and said, "take Xiaojie for a picnic sometime." She didn''t know whether the milk bag had read the news these two days, but the text message the milk bag gave her was just to argue with her. In her private heart, she thought that Gu Beichen blocked the news outside the school If the milk bag knew that she had a physical problem, she didn''t know what he would do? "Why do you suddenly think of having a picnic?" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and asked, trying to cover up her inner uneasiness. Chapter 445 "You don''t want to?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer the question. Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth. Before she answered, Fang Xilan brought two dishes in. "You eat first, and I''ll get two more!" Jane Mo nodded with a smile: "thank you, sister LAN." Fang Xilan smiled and turned to go out However, when she closed the door of the elegant room, she slightly circled her eyebrows and looked back. Although I can''t see anything How do you feel... The atmosphere inside is strange? Fang Xilan didn''t think much and continued to cook It''s already more than 10 p.m. after dinner with Gu Beichen, and it''s almost 12 o''clock when they return to the villa. "I can''t sleep..." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "Well... I''ll draw a picture!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "it''s very late." "But I slept all afternoon..." Jane Mo hugged Gu Beichen''s waist. "Besides, don''t you have a meeting to hold?" Gu Beichen frowned and obviously didn''t know how Jian Mo knew. "I''ll wait for you to finish..." Jane Morse looked sad, as if to say, I won''t tell you how I know. Gu Beichen sighed that the next meeting is very important and involves the emperor''s another shareholders'' meeting. In addition, Jian Mo did sleep all afternoon and ate so many things at night. He also needed to digest... He didn''t nod again. The light of the crystal glass lamp poured down and hit the figure of Jian Mo sitting in front of the table on the ground. On the computer is the architectural drawing of Shao Shi''s villa, and she hasn''t finished the interior design yet However, at the moment, Jane Mo had no thought at all. After taking the drawing pen and paper, Jane Mo simply began to study the diagram of double-layer QR code As time passed, when the needle was at two o''clock, there was a gentle sound in the study. Gu Beichen stood at the stairs and looked at Jian Mo, who was already asleep on the table. He frowned slightly and went down The eagle''s eyes fell on the unfinished QR code, sighed, attached to the body and hugged Jane mo. "Hmm..." Jian Mo gave an uneasy cry, then found a comfortable position in Gu Beichen''s arm and continued to sleep. The night is very heavy. It was as silent as a thousand Chu Zixiao is still in the law firm, and a desk lamp has cast a large shadow on the whole office. There is a pile of files on the desk, which haven''t been turned over for a long time. He seemed a little anxious. He picked up his cell phone, put it down, picked it up again... After several times, he finally picked it up and opened it. The mysterious man''s message is printed on the bottom of his eyes: the fourth pill is very important for Jian mo... Whether to give it to Gu Beichen or let him give up Jian Mo depends on what you want! This text message is like a magic spell, which enchants Chu Zixiao''s heart He hung his hand powerlessly, and the mobile phone flashed a faint light, reflecting the ground into a hazy square inch... Until the light disappeared because of the lock screen. When the morning came, the rain that had stopped came down again. After having breakfast with Jian Mo in the villa, Gu Beichen drove to the emperor. Before leaving, I specially explained to Aunt Luo that if there is anything wrong with Jane, I should call him at the first time. "Young lady..." aunt Luo put a cup of milk tea where it didn''t interfere with Jian Mo, looked at the design drawing on the table, and said helplessly, "it''s been painted all morning, and I don''t rest..." Jane Mo raised the corners of her mouth and handed it to Aunt Luo as if she were offering treasure when she left the last stroke of the drawing pen. Aunt Luo looked curiously and frowned, "is this a QR code?" "Almost..." Jane Mo smiled with aunt Luo in her arms. "However, this is double-layer and needs to be decomposed." "So troublesome?" Aunt Luo screwed her eyebrows. "It''s good to use the computer directly. What do you want? Can an input be generated automatically?" "That''s so boring..." Jian Mo said with an eyebrow. "What he painted is sincere." Aunt Luo looked at Jian Mo and suddenly reacted, "give it to Chen Shao?" "Hey, hey..." Jane Mo grinned and covered the faint sadness in the bottom of her eyes. Aunt Luo smiled vaguely. Seeing that Jane Mo''s cheeks were a little red, she didn''t tease her, "I''ll cook..." "Aunt Luo, fry more!" Jane Mo said hurriedly. Aunt Luo thought Jane Mo was hungry today, smiled and nodded, "well, get two more you like." "No..." Jane Mo tidied up the things on the table. "I want to send dinner to ah Chen later." Aunt Luo was stunned and nodded quickly. Jane Mo took the packed things to her study She doesn''t use this study except for putting things. I''m used to drawing pictures on the dining table. Jane Mo can''t get rid of this problem The sound of "crash" came. Jian Mo looked at the drawing because she was not careful. She sighed helplessly and squatted down to pick it up. When picking up the last two-layer two-dimensional code map, which has just been completed, Jian Mo''s action gradually stopped, and a pair of black pupils fell on it, unable to move for a long time. Tears fell on the QR code without warning Jane Mo was surprised and hurried to wipe... But blurred the corner of the QR code. Looking at the dizzy place, Jane Mo bit her lips tightly and looked sideways Outside the window, the rain is still falling, and the patter is not big. I don''t know whether the rain blurred my sight or tears wet my eyes. Gradually, the scene in front of me became more and more blurred. She knew what ah Chen was thinking, but... She pretended not to know. She just thought that each other would be firm and would go on like this. Ah Chen knew she knew what he was thinking, but she pretended not to know How can she do it if she has to? "Young lady..." aunt Luo''s voice came from downstairs. "The food has been loaded." Jane Mo flustered away her tears. "Well, ok..." she answered, got up from the ground and put all the drawings on the desk. After looking at the two-dimensional code with dizzy edges and corners, Jane Mo took out other drawings and pressed them on it. While wiping her tears, she left the study and went downstairs. Drive to Emperor Group Taking the exclusive elevator, Jane Mo went to the top floor. Looking at the rising numbers flashing, Jane Mo took a deep breath and pulled a big smile at the mirror to prevent her sad mood from overflowing "Ding" came. When the elevator door opened, Jane Mo went out. The corridor was quiet. Jane Mo looked at the time and thought that Susan and Xiao Jing should all go downstairs for dinner. When she came over, she didn''t tell Gu Beichen. Looking at the direction of the office, Jane Mo thought secretly: won''t people be there? Thinking about it, I heard Gu Beichen''s low voice from the concealed Office "Your terms!" Jane Mo stopped slowly and stood by the door. The quiet space was dignified. After a while, a cold voice came: "my condition... It''s her!" Chapter 446 Jane Mo''s heart suddenly shook, and her hand holding the heat preservation bag of the food box gradually clenched up Silence is the only one inside or outside at the moment. Gradually, from the inside of the dignified spread to the outside, Jane foam felt that she was almost unable to breathe. Eyelashes fluttered gently, and Jian Mo''s heart tightened gradually... She was waiting for Gu Beichen''s answer. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at Chu Zixiao sitting opposite. The two men just confronted each other, as if no one would give in "You know, it''s impossible!" Gu Beichen''s voice was faint, as if it had come from ancient times. It is very light, but it shows irreversible depth. Chu Zixiao lowered his eyes. "Beichen, you know... You have no choice. Unless..." he raised his eyes and looked up at Gu Beichen again, "you want to see her gradually in front of you..." Chu Zixiao didn''t say the rest. Perhaps, this situation is not what he wants to see. "Do you want to see such a situation?" Gu Beichen slightly raised his eyebrows and eyes, showing lingran''s domineering spirit. "Who can see through his smile?" maybe Xiaochu can''t see through his smile Gu Beichen put his crossed hands on his legs and gradually tightened up, as if he was holding back something... However, there was no half expression on his cold, carved face. "Than patience?" Gu Beichen gave a light sigh of sneer. Chu Zixiao raised her eyebrows and smiled at the corners of her mouth. People who don''t know the cause and effect will think that the relationship between the two nephews is the same as before. "Beichen, you know me, just as I know you sometimes." Chu Zixiao''s voice was full of the lawyer''s calmness, "maybe I can''t compare with anything else... But we have half a chance of winning in the matter of foam, don''t we?" Another silence is like pressing a stone in Jane Mo''s heart, making her breathing short. "Only Mo Mo comes back to me..." Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen and said slowly but heavily, "she can be well!" Gu Beichen''s eyes were sharp. Before he spoke, the door of the office was pushed open. Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao instinctively looked. When they saw Jian Mo standing at the door, they frowned invisibly. Just now... Neither of them found anyone outside? "Chu Zixiao, you dream!" Jian Mo stared at Chu Zixiao, "even if I die, I will only die in Gu Beichen''s arms... I won''t come back to you, not now, not in the future, never -" The roar was on the verge of breaking out. She was like a little beast going crazy, with thorns all over her. Chu Zixiao stood up and looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight from just calm to deep, "isn''t it?" "Yes!" After squeezing out a word, Jian Mo no longer looked at Chu Zixiao and looked at Gu Beichen, "is this what you call going on and accompanying me to my old age?" The sadness and disappointment in the voice could not be attached. Jane Mo''s nose was very sour, but she didn''t cry! "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen called softly, with too much emotion. Jian Mo took a deep breath, closed his eyes and said, "I''m responsible for my life... Even you can''t make a decision for me!" The firm but sad words pierced Gu Beichen''s heart like a needle. He didn''t speak because he was unable to refute. Jane Mo came forward and put the lunch box in her hand on the desk. "This is lunch." She lowered her eyes and said softly. There was sadness in the bottom of her eyes that only she could feel. Clenching her teeth tightly, Jian Mo slowly tilted her head and looked at Chu Zixiao, "isn''t it good for me to leave my good memories in the past? Isn''t it good for me to leave all the good memories in the campus? Why... Why do I have to let all the good be wiped out?" The questioning words came slowly but heavily, "Zixiao, do you know... How much effort have I made in order not to give you hope for me? How much effort have I made in order to preserve the original beauty?" Something cracked on Chu Zixiao''s face "And all this has been destroyed by you!" Jane Mo smiled, but with a sad smile, "you destroyed everything, and now you want to destroy me... Don''t you?" With a bang, a heavy hammer fell on Chu Zixiao''s heart. "Now, are you satisfied?" Jian Mo said, "when I lost my family and everything... I finally caught a little light leading to happiness, and you, cruel, have to stifle my last expectation." Sucking her nose, Jane Mo moistened her eyes uncontrollably, but she stubbornly didn''t let her tears fall. "I am a single individual, and my thoughts are sometimes beyond my control. How do you manage it?" The voice of questioning was disappointed. Jane Mo bit her lower lip, "you wasted my trust in you and my guilt for you." She said the last word coldly. Jian Mo glanced fiercely at Gu Beichen and turned and left "Mo''er..." "Foam!" "Don''t follow any of you..." Jane Mo stood at the door. "I just want to be alone now!" Jane Mo left the office and looked at Susan and Xiao Jing standing not far away. They were still holding lunch for Gu Beichen. "Young lady..." Xiao Jing shouted convulsively. Susan''s face was frozen and worried. She is a woman and can understand the feeling of being "betrayed" by her beloved And the woman she looked at came strong, now with strong to cover up their vulnerability, people feel distressed. However, at this moment... Who can hurt too little? Jane Mo left, leaving a lunch box on her desk. Aunt Luo didn''t tell him that Mo''er would come to deliver lunch. Did she want to surprise and move him? Gu Beichen secretly mocked himself. The ink pupil was as deep as the sea and couldn''t see the bottom. Chu Zixiao didn''t move, but looked at the office door where there was no one... Jian Mo''s question sprinkled a feather in his heart. With his breath, he was going crazy. Jane Mo forgot to drive and just walked mechanically until she stopped at the flower bed and looked up at the dark sky The drizzle fell on her and came to her face with sadness. The eyelash feather kept trembling, and the hot tears fell down, but the corners of her mouth were smiling. What can I do so she can''t leave him? What can he do to keep her without blaming himself? What is she going to do? Jian Mo''s eyes were full of tears and kept rolling down Her heart hurts, hurts! The rain is still falling Suddenly, an umbrella hit her on the head. Jane Mo turned around with tearful eyes... To a pair of distressed eyes! Chapter 447 Su Junli looked at Jian Mo softly, and his warm smile seemed to be the sun in a rainy day at the moment. "Cry..." Su Junli''s soft voice like a violin came, "just cry as much as you want." He lowered his umbrella so that people couldn''t see Jane Mo''s face. Jian Mo burst because of Su Jun''s leaving action. She covered her mouth with her hand and began to cry. "What should I do..." Jane Mo asked sadly, and her body squatted down slowly, holding her knees and burying her head, she burst into tears. Su Junli''s heart was pulled up by her crying He didn''t know what had happened. He just passed by and saw her confused and disoriented back from a distance. Su Junli squatted down slowly with an umbrella At this moment, he didn''t care whether anyone would find out or what public opinion happened. He just loves this strong for so long that he can only vent her in this way He leaned out his long arm and put Jian Mo in his arms with one hand... Without any words, he just listened to her cry. It''s raining hard. I don''t know if God also felt Jane Mo''s sadness. The raindrops hit the umbrella and made a "crackling" sound. Jane Mo didn''t know how long she had been crying. She had no tears for a long time. "Sorry, I..." "You don''t need to say sorry to me." Su Junli''s voice was penetrating under the sound of the rain. "When you are sad, I can still be by your side... This is also a kind of happiness." Jane Mo didn''t hear Su Jun''s words clearly. She just looked up slowly and looked at him with red eyes. Su Jun smiled gently from the corner of his mouth, "do you want to go somewhere?" He looked around at the rain. "This weather is suitable for a daze, isn''t it?" Jian Mo burst into laughter and separated from Su Jun, as if she could relax at any time. Nodding, Jane Mo didn''t refuse. She really wants to think about it now and how to go next. ¡­¡­ The confrontation between Chu Zixiao and Gu Beichen didn''t stop because Jian Mo suddenly appeared and left. Now both of them are forced to the edge of the cliff... No matter what the result is, it''s just one of her. "I won''t let go..." Chu Zixiao left a message when he left. "Since I first stepped into the abyss, Beichen, I have no way back. Whether she hates me or I know it''s a wrong way... I can''t turn back." Gu Chen stood up in front of the window, his eyes twisted and his hands narrowed. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing came in, "Xiao Nan is ready." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but the ink pupil grew deeper and deeper Xiao Jing is waiting. His eyes are less playful and more serious. "Let''s move..." Gu Beichen spoke slowly after a while. "Yes!" Xiao Jing''s obvious eyes lit up. After answering the voice, he turned and left. Since Mo''er must take the fourth medicine, Zixiao doesn''t want to turn back... He has no way back. At night, on a gloomy and rainy day, it came down a little earlier than usual. Gu Beichen stood in front of the window for a long time. He didn''t recover until the lights were on. He took his mobile phone and called Jian Mo, "where is it?" Listening to the soft but dignified voice, Jane Mo''s heart tightened suddenly, "I''m here in Xiaoyue, i... I''m not going back tonight." Silence! Gu Beichen said slowly after a while: "OK..." Jane Mo''s nose was sour in an instant. She was angry and hung up without saying anything. Li Xiaoyue tidied up the file, looked at the woman sitting on the sofa and getting angry with herself, and sighed, "girl, the number of paragraphs of these little girls is not suitable for you and your Gu general manager." "If I can''t say it back, he said..." Jane Mo gritted her teeth. "Anyway, he''s going to push me away!" Li Xiaoyue didn''t know what had happened. She just thought the couple quarreled, "tut Tut, don''t say I don''t help you. I don''t believe your Gu pushed you away." "He..." Jane Mo stopped talking. "Look, you can''t convince yourself." Li Xiaoyue put the file in her bag, "go, sister, take you to have a big meal to vent your anger, and then have the strength to teach your general manager!" Then she came forward and picked Jian Mo''s chin, "but... Girl, I suggest you put down your boss directly in bed." She smiled jokingly, "you think this is the only way to hold your general manager." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "obscene!" "Tut Tut, who said that her general manager Yan Gaoqi''s rough work was good?" Li Xiaoyue couldn''t stand rolling her eyes. "Now it''s time for me to be dirty?" Jian Mo looked at Li Xiaoyue, "Xiaoyue..." "Huh?" "Have you finished your court session tomorrow?" Jane Mo suddenly looked serious. "Why?" Li Xiaoyue asked curiously while locking the door. Jane Mo lowered her eyes. She didn''t know whether Zixiao was trying to deceive her yesterday or whether Yang Ziyu''s story was true. In the afternoon, I was in a daze in the cafe. I suddenly thought of it and hurried over "Just accompany me to relax..." Jane Mo raised her eyes. Li Xiaoyue leaned on the door frame, "girl, what''s the matter with you and your general manager Gu?" If she had just felt that they were just making trouble, it would be completely different now. "If you''re a sister, don''t ask..." Jane Mo''s heart is heavy. "Let me be capricious for a time, okay?" Li Xiaoyue came forward and hugged Jian Mo, "where do you want to go? Why don''t... Let''s go to T city? Didn''t you always want to see fluorescent squid when you were at school? This season is just right..." Jane Mo smiled, "OK." Whether it''s to pull Xiaoyue away and make her unable to take over the case... Or her ostrich wants to calm down for a few days. Maybe it''s best for them to leave now. ¡­¡­ The darkness shrouded Gu Beichen''s figure, only the star light burning with smoke. The rain began to rain a lot. The raindrops hit the glass and made a crisp and dull sound. With a buzzing sound, Gu Beichen twists out the cigarette butt behind the ashtray, takes his mobile phone and cuts it open ¡ª¡ªMiss Jane and Miss Li returned to the community after dinner. The light in Miss Li''s room was on. There was no expression on Gu Beichen''s cold face, and the eagle''s eyes reflected by the light of the mobile phone were deep and bottomless. At the right time, the mobile phone vibrates in the hand, and the caller ID covers the interface of SMS. Gu Beichen saw that it was Xiao Jing. His eyes were slightly cold. When he answered the phone, he put it in his ear At the same time, Chu Zixiao opened the drawer of the office, flipped it a few times and suddenly widened his eyes. The medicine bottle originally put in it and containing the last medicine is missing Chapter 448 "Chen Shao, I didn''t find it!" Xiao Jing''s voice showed a trace of anxiety. "All places have been found..." he paused. "I don''t know if Chu Shao has put it on him." "Impossible!" Gu Beichen immediately rejected, "if he came to see me today, he wouldn''t put it on him." He sank his eyes. "Most likely, he should put it in the law firm." I just took one for Mo''er yesterday, and he suddenly appeared... The possibility that the medicine is still in the law firm is the greatest. Xiao Jing frowned, "the law firm has found it, but there is no!" Gu Beichen''s cold face was gradually shrouded in haze, and the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly On the phone, there was the sound of raindrops hitting the window, with heavy force. Xiao Jing clenched his hand, as if he didn''t have to talk. Each other already knew one thing Chu Zixiao knew this or prevented Gu Beichen from stealing medicine, so he made preparations in advance. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao kept searching in the office and couldn''t find the medicine bottle after looking around. After meditating for a while, Chu Zixiao thought he remembered wrong and took the car key out of the law firm Ignoring the umbrella, I opened the door and opened the toolbox, but there was no inside! "How possible?" Chu Zixiao immediately tightened her eyebrows. As a lawyer, it is necessary to have a clear mind... For such important things, first of all, he will not misplace them. Secondly, he can''t remember where he misplaced them. However, no matter in the office or in the car now! The mobile phone vibrated in his pocket Chu Zixiao took it out and got on the bus to pick it up. "The last pill was taken back by me!" The sound of machinery came with a smile. Chu Zixiao was suddenly stunned, "what did you say?" "To push you..." there was a slow smile in the sound of the machine. "What do you mean?" Chu Zixiao gritted his teeth and asked. The mysterious man chuckled, "I''m afraid you''re not firm enough. If you give this medicine to Gu Beichen or Jian mo... You say, I''ve done so much for you, and I regret when I fall short in the end. Didn''t I do so much in vain?" Chu Zixiao''s eyes were slightly cold, and his hand holding the mobile phone gradually used its strength to make a ''quack'' sound. "What the hell do you want... Jane Joong?" Chu Zixiao gnashed his teeth. "Is it meaningful for you to do what you know about each other?" The mysterious man was silent, as if he was stunned by being seen through. "Jian Heng? It''s just a chess!" After all, the mysterious man said, "Chu Zixiao, now, you have no choice... If you want Jane Mo to live, you can only let her come back to you!" Chu Zixiao clenched his teeth tightly. At this moment, the feeling of powerlessness came overwhelming. "Then... I''ll give you this medicine naturally." The mysterious man''s faint voice came, "remember, you only have no more than ten days... After time, even if I give you this medicine, it won''t work." Before Chu Zixiao spoke, the phone had been cut off. He hurriedly dialed back, but it showed that it was an empty number Every time, like hands and eyes in the dark, the mysterious man watched all the while pushing everyone to the abyss. Feebly dropped his hand, the rain beat on the car, made a strong sound, fell on his heart, and showed anxiety. The next day, it rained all night, but in the early morning, it became a drizzle. Li Xiaoyue and Jian Mo went downstairs and saw Maybach parked downstairs. Gu Beichen was wearing a suit as dark as the car body and leaned on it at will. I don''t know how long he stood. His wild but heavy short hair was a little wet, and his shoulders were stained with rain... But he didn''t show decadence at all. Li Xiaoyue met Jian Mo, "is your Gu always pretending to be melancholy?" Jane Mo didn''t speak. "Well, I won''t accompany you two to pretend to be forced......" Li Xiaoyue said with a low smile, "but do I still ask for this holiday?" "Please!" Jane Mo said quickly. Li Xiaoyue frowned, "it won''t be a three person trip back. Do you abuse my single Wang?" She was serious. "I don''t accept dog food!" Jane Mo stared at Li Xiaoyue. Is she still in the mood to joke? "I''ll go first..." Li Xiaoyue also had to prepare materials for the court session. She went to Gu Beichen, said hello, drove her own car and left. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo looked at each other, and neither of them spoke. I don''t know if the air pressure around him is too low. Jian Mo is secretly angry when she sees that he doesn''t speak... She raises her feet and wants to leave over him. However, when the talent passed by him, his wrist was pulled. "Mo''er, let''s talk!" Gu Beichen''s voice was a little hoarse. Jane Mo''s heart choked for a while. She twisted her wrist and ignored Gu Beichen''s shackles. "There''s nothing to talk about..." she glanced at Gu Beichen. "I think we both need to calm down and think about the next... How do we go." "Mo''er!" Gu Beichen is a little weak. Jane Mo''s nose was sour in an instant. Her eyes were red. "Gu Beichen, when I came back... You shouldn''t provoke me again!" Then she took Gu Beichen''s hand, shackled her fingers, and pulled out her wrist... Turned and left. But before she took two steps, Gu Beichen caught her. Before she could react, she had stuffed her into the co pilot and fastened her seat belt. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s frozen face and didn''t move. His sight moved with the figure of him bypassing the front of the car and going to the driver''s seat. Get in the car, fasten your seat belt and start... A beautiful tail flick. The car left Li Xiaoyue''s community with a roar. Jane Mo didn''t know where Gu Beichen was taking her. When the car stopped in the cemetery, she couldn''t help frowning. Gu Beichen said nothing, but got off and went to the co pilot, "get off!" Jane mohuo also came up, loosened her seat belt, got out of the car, secretly clenched her teeth and stared at him. Gu Beichen took her into the tomb area and finally stopped in front of Jane Zhanfeng and Su Mo''s tomb Jane Mo''s breathing was a little heavy, and even she began to be afraid inexplicably. "In front of my parents, I said that I would never let go of your hand in my life..." Gu Beichen gently lifted his thin lips and his voice was far-reaching and heavy. "Now, I have broken my promise... Jian Mo, I''m sorry, I can only be the one who let go!" Looking at Gu Beichen''s serious face, Jian Mo seemed to instantly return to the time of the contract marriage. Gu Beichen was so indifferent except for being gentle and evil in bed... The rest of the time. "You said to hold hands and let go..." Jian Mo sneered. "Gu Beichen, you can''t decide anything in the world! I won''t leave, even if I have only a short month, a week, or even today... I won''t leave!" Tears fell without warning. "Live a meaningless life. I''d rather spend the last years with you..." Jane Mo kept fanning her eyelashes and wanted to hold back her tears, but she couldn''t help it. "Ah Chen, don''t push me... I''m not afraid of death... Please don''t push me away!" Chapter 449 Out of control to the humble voice and a needle, ruthlessly stabbed Gu Beichen''s heart... The pain was so painful that he was about to suffocate. The nose was sour and astringent. Gu Beichen slowly clenched his hand, "Jane Mo, how can you be so selfish?" Light eh''s voice is husky and confused under the hazy drizzle... But it''s cold. "I''m selfish?" Jane Mo was a little confused. She kept fanning her eyes, as if she didn''t understand. "You let me watch your life slowly disappear in front of me..." Gu Beichen clenched his hands and said, "... How cruel are you to me?" Jane Mo only felt that her legs and feet were soft, and stepped back one step after another without control "In order to be with you, I have to watch your life pass... I," something cracked on Gu Beichen''s cold face, "can''t do it." Tears, so ''Susu'' falling down. The eyelash feather doesn''t know whether it''s rain or tears. In short, it blurs the line of sight Jane Mo''s nerve suddenly burst. She looked at Gu Beichen, her lips trembling and moving, but she couldn''t say anything. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen called hard, which represented too much. "I can''t help it, do you understand?" Gu Beichen laughed with self mockery, "I can''t let you by my side... I can''t. do you understand?" "You have, you have... You have!" Jian Mo cried, "you can go to Zixiao and ask for the medicine. You can ask Yunze to show me... You can ask the Dragon owl to find the medicine. You have -" Jian Mo screamed in pain. She didn''t know whether she was lying to herself or questioning Gu Beichen. She squatted down slowly and burst into tears in front of the tombs of Jane Zhanfeng and Su mo. "Why, why did we come to this point..." Jian Mo hissed and asked, "what do you want me to do? What should I do..." The helpless hesitation completely revealed Jane Mo''s cowardice. She was helpless as if she had lost her beloved toy child. Gu Beichen''s eyes are red. He has been cold-blooded for so many years. Even in the face of everyone, it seems that we can be indifferent to each other. But now... There is a woman named Jian Mo, deeply immersed in his flesh and blood. Now, he wants to dig her out by himself Such pain, others can not understand, can not understand. Squat down and hold Jane Mo in your arms "I know you''ll live well..." Gu Beichen''s voice trembled faintly. "You''re Jianmo... A Jianmo who can''t beat you down!" "I don''t want to... I don''t want to be a strong Jianmo, I don''t want to!" Jian Mo said while crying. She lifted her tearful eyes and looked at Gu Beichen dimly. "Is there really no way? Can''t you not push me away?" Such humbleness is like a grain of dust in the wind Gu Beichen secretly swallowed his sadness, and his thin lips kissed the tears on Jian Mo''s face... The salty taste hurt his heart. "Mo''er, I''m sorry..." Gu Beichen''s voice trembled slightly because of sadness. "You hate me... Hate me, but I can''t watch you disappear. Do you understand?" "Don''t tell me you''re sorry..." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen. "I don''t want to be sorry! I don''t want to..." The hoarse low roar showed weakness. Jane Mo thought that as long as they calmed each other, this thing could be regarded as not happening. But why Why do you still come to this step, still so fast! "Gu Beichen, even if you push me away, I won''t return to Zixiao..." Jian Mo''s eyelashes trembled. "Even if I die, I won''t take that pill... If I always die in the end, can you not push me away?" "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen stroked Jian Mo''s cheek with his big palm. "Your life, your life, is not just love... You still have Xiaojie and your design. Do you really want to give up everything for one me?" Jane Mo''s heart suddenly shook. She looked at Gu Beichen incredulously, "you threatened me with a milk bag?" "If, can let you live......" Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and said. This woman is tough, but she is also stubborn She will really take the medicine for this feeling without compromise... But he can''t let her do so. Jane Mo pushed Gu Beichen away and watched him almost sit on the ground, slowly rising with disappointment at the bottom of her eyes The condescending sight was filled with deep grief. As Gu Beichen stood up and moved his sight, "Gu Beichen, the milk bag left me, and you..." her nose became more and more sour, "but what else do you have if you leave me?" The roaring voice was filled with despair, but the tears were firm. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil suddenly cracked something, as if some didn''t know how to react. "You say?" Jane Mo roared, "you lost me, what else do you have?" "How do you know?" Gu Beichen''s breathing suddenly became urgent. "Don''t care how I know..." Jane Mo stared. "It''s painful to die, but it''s more painful to be born and separated... Gu Beichen, what do you do if you lose me?" Once again, Jane Mo''s mood collapsed Because she found that Gu Beichen would lose her no matter whether she was born or dead! What''s he gonna do? What''s he gonna do? When he left that day, he whispered to her... If ah Chen didn''t have her, he would die! He didn''t say the specific reason, but... She knew that the South was not joking, no! It must have something to do with the memory of ah Chen being kidnapped "Gu Beichen, I won''t leave you..." Jane Mo sucked her nose and wiped her tears with the back of her hand. "No!" Finally, she threw down two words, stared deeply at Gu Beichen, turned and left Under the drizzle, Jane Mo''s back is thin and distressing. However, she has propped up her whole world She is not selfish, just... She doesn''t want the man she loves to be so tired. Knowing that all this has something to do with Zixiao, he must have made a lot of efforts. What kind of weakness can he push her away like this? Jane Mo''s tears went all the way and fell all the way There is sadness and heartache. Gu Beichen stood in the same place and watched Jian Mo''s figure go farther and farther, gradually disappearing into the bottom of his eyes. "Zixiao, don''t force me to destroy everything about you..." late at night, Gu Beichen waited in Chu Zixiao''s apartment after Xiao Jing''s action failed. Chu Zixiao was wet, as if he had just been poured by the heavy rain, "destroy me, I just want foam!" The cold night was filled with machinery. "Foam is an independent individual. Even if I give it to you, will it be ok?" Gu Beichen gritted his teeth. Chu Zixiao smiled coldly, "Beichen... It depends on you. Ten days... If you can''t force her to my side, you can only watch her die!" Chapter 450 Standing at the gate of the cemetery, Jian Mo took a deep breath, then took out his mobile phone and called Chu Zixiao "Busy?" Jane Mo''s voice is mechanical. Chu Zixiao looked at the file in front of him, "busy..." "I want to see you." Jane Mo''s voice didn''t have any intonation. Chu Zixiao was silent and answered softly, "at six o''clock in the evening, the Nanxiang building in the school." "OK, I''ll wait for you." Jane answered and hung up. She took a deep breath and looked back... Gu Beichen didn''t follow. With a self mocking smile, Jane Mo smiled: ah Chen, whether you give up me or not, I don''t want to give up you... If you only have me in this world, how can I leave? Take back your sight, Jane Mo left the cemetery She walked like this. The drizzle and gloomy weather seemed to be the most suitable for sadness. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao was powerless lying on the seat, his sight fell in front, and gradually relaxed. Slowly closed his eyes, from knowing Jane Mo to now, his mind flashed like a slide... Until the mysterious man''s phone last night. "You give me the medicine and take it back?" The rain hit the window. Chu Zixiao gnashed his teeth. "Are you kidding me?" The mysterious man''s laughter was strangely cold, "Chu Zixiao, you are really as I thought... You regret it. You don''t want to force Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, are you? Are you willing?" "If I''m willing or not, what''s your business?" Chu Zixiao became trembling because he was too angry. The mysterious man was silent. After several seconds, he said slowly, "if it''s none of my business, do you think I''ll do so much?" A rhetorical question made Chu Zixiao slightly stunned, "you are Jian Chang!" He said firmly. The mysterious man smiled. "If you think so, you will think that Jane Mo won''t be in danger at the last moment... Help yourself." Chu Zixiao closed his eyes and was almost on the edge of madness. "How can you give me the fourth pill?" "It''s very simple. Force Jian Mo to come back to you. I''ll give you the medicine only when she comes back to you..." the mysterious man''s voice was firm. "In fact, you have to thank me... If it wasn''t for me, you and Jian Mo would be completely over, wouldn''t you?" He laughed, even some reckless, "Chu Zixiao, if this medicine is in your hand, you will be completely defeated..." "I''m invincible. I don''t need you to participate." Chu Zixiao is cold. "You have never been cruel to Gu Beichen." The mysterious man smiled, "Chu Zixiao, I''ll let you see clearly what the real Gu Beichen looks like. Then, you''ll know how much my action today has helped you..." Chu Zixiao''s eyes were suddenly cold, with fear and anger. "Don''t try to do anything, if..." the mysterious man smiled darkly. "You hold the plan of secretly cooperating with Gu Beichen. What you lose... Must be Jian mo." The cold voice echoed in my mind. The warning of the mysterious man made Chu Zixiao powerless He closed his eyes slowly, with a deep pain tortured by his heart on his face. ¡­¡­ "Young grandma, how do you..." aunt Luo saw Jane Mo coming back and saw that her clothes were wet. She was stunned at first and hurriedly took her into the villa. "You go upstairs to take a hot bath and change your clothes. I''ll boil you some ginger soup." Jane Mo pulled the corner of her mouth, "thank you, aunt Luo..." Listening to her hoarse voice and strong expression, aunt Luo smiled painfully, "go, don''t wait for a cold." Jane nodded and went upstairs. Lying in the Jacuzzi, Jane Mo soaked the whole person in the water The warm water wraps around the skin like a lover''s kiss. With a crash, Jian Mo floated out of the water before some suffocation, and his eyes were full of red blood looking ahead. The sour taste is like this. You can hide it anytime, anywhere. Aunt Luo cooked the ginger soup. Seeing that Jian Mo hadn''t come down yet, she ordered the servant to warm it. When she was going to do something else, she saw Gu Beichen standing far away in the yard without an umbrella. Frowned, aunt Luo took the umbrella and went out "Chen Shao?" Aunt Luo felt the low pressure and her heart was a little heavy. "Is she all right?" Gu Beichen asked, with a dull voice. Aunt Luo looked back and shook her head, "young lady looks very sad..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil darkened, and soon recovered his calm. Without saying anything, he turned and wanted to leave She came back from the cemetery like this, step by step. He followed her not far or near, and walked back with her all the way The cemetery is far away from here. It''s past noon, but she hasn''t rested all the way and has been walking mechanically. He knew and experienced the feeling that his soul was evacuated. But... What can he do? Last night, I went to Zixiao''s apartment to wait for him. Zixiao''s attitude has explained everything... The medicine has long been hidden in case of him. "Chen Shao..." aunt Luo suddenly shouted. Gu Beichen stopped and didn''t look back. Aunt Luo forbeared, but she still couldn''t restrain her red eyes and asked, "do you have to let Mrs. Shao leave?" She was sad. "Would it be too cruel to drive her away?" "Long pain is better than short pain, isn''t it?" Gu Beichen''s voice came through a hole, and he lifted his feet again. Aunt Luo''s eyes were wet. Just now she was cooking ginger soup for Mrs. Shao, but she received a call from Chen Shao in a short time. Obviously, the wedding was held here the day before yesterday. Why today Aunt Luo watched Gu Beichen go to the parking lot and drive away. She secretly wiped her tears and turned back to the villa. Jane Mo stood in front of the French window, her sight was a little empty "Aunt Luo, is he back?" Jane Mo asked, looking sideways at Aunt Luo. Aunt Luo nodded at the corner of her lips. "The ginger soup has been cooked. Young lady, why don''t you have some first?" Jane nodded and went to the table, "aunt Luo... Did he say anything to you?" "No, no?" Aunt Luo instinctively resisted. Jian Mo drank ginger tea silently and didn''t ask again No matter what Gu Beichen said to Aunt Luo, aunt Luo''s tone of resistance must be bad for her. In that case, you should not know. After drinking ginger soup, Jian Mo had a simple lunch, and then went to the study Aunt Luo instinctively took away all the things on the table. Seeing Jane Mo holding her designed things down, she thought of Gu Beichen''s words, endured and said nothing. Jian Mo draws the picture calmly, as if nothing had happened The clock pointed to five. Jane Mo looked at the picture on the table and changed her clothes. "Aunt Luo, I''m going out, and I won''t eat dinner at home..." Jane Mo said as usual, as if nothing had happened. Aunt Luo''s mouth moved back and forth. She endured what she wanted to say and nodded. Jian Mo drove to Nanxiang building near Luoda. Before the person arrived, Li Xiaoyue''s phone came "Girl, I can''t ask for leave..." Li Xiaoyue''s voice came through with forbearance. Chapter 451 Jane Mo''s heart suddenly shook, and an unknown premonition came up, "why?" Li Xiaoyue was silent first, then slowly, with some forbearance: "the law firm has received a case..." Heart, suddenly ''click''. There was something to blurt out in an instant, but Jane Mo held back after her lips moved. Biting her lips, Jane Mo closed her eyes and said, "I have something here. I''ll find you later..." Li Xiaoyue was silent again and said, "I''m waiting for you in m3. Come here when you''re finished!" "Good!" Jane Mo answered, and people had stepped into Nanxiang building. Pushing open the door of the elegant room, Chu Zixiao looked out of the window lazily with her chin... There was a hidden melancholy smell all over her, which made her think she had returned to the campus. For a moment, she was stunned. When Chu Zixiao turned back, Jane Mo returned to her senses. He pulled the corners of his mouth and smiled reluctantly. Jian Mo sat opposite Chu Zixiao, "sorry, I''m late..." "I''m early." Chu Zixiao''s voice is faint and soft, but it makes people feel a little depressed. Jane Mo drooped her eyes and was silent for a while. After several times of touching her lips, she raised her eyes and looked at Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao kept looking at Jian Mo and didn''t speak. There was no tense atmosphere, but it became more and more embarrassing. After biting her lips, Jane Mo looked at Chu Zixiao with reddish eyes because she had been crying for too long in the morning. She asked reluctantly, "Zixiao... You, you..." she began to get nervous, and her heart missed beating for several times. "Can you... Give me the last medicine?" If humble words fall, her nose will be sour. Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo, and the position of his heart contracted sharply, as if someone had strangled it with a rope! Jane Mo chuckled her lips and lowered her eyes. "If I tell you, I''m afraid of death..." she mocked herself and hooked her lips, "you certainly don''t believe it." She raised her eyes, "but I told you that I don''t want to leave him, and you certainly won''t consider giving it to me..." Jane Mo''s eyes were filled with a layer of water mist. She quickly lowered her eyes and wanted to hide it. Chu Zixiao''s heartache is about to suffocate. What situation has he pushed each other to? She is such a proud and strong person She is a person who can rely on her face, but has to prove herself with talent and strength. She is so humble at the moment Chu Zixiao stared at Jian Mo deeply. The pain in her heart was full of regret but helpless. However, things are different. They are out of the scope of what he can do and wants to do "Mo Mo..." Chu Zixiao said, with a heavy voice. Jane Mo''s eyelashes trembled uncontrollably, "Zixiao!" She interrupted him for fear of "indifference" in his words. "If you really still love me..." Jane Mo''s nose is not sour. "Can you help me?" The begging words were humble and pitiful. Jane Mo bit her lips again and swallowed the dense water mist back Such actions are strong and more humble. "I don''t want to lie to you, but I really need medicine now..." Jane Mo sucked her nose and looked aside. Her red eyes completely exposed her weakness at the moment. Chu Zixiao''s vision has been well understood. He closed his eyes, covered up all the emotions overflowing in the moment and opened his eyes At the right time, Jane Mo has also cleaned up a little and looked at him... However, the humble begging at the bottom of her eyes can''t be covered. "I''m sorry..." the slow voice overflowed Chu Zixiao''s lips and showed depression. "If you want the last medicine, foam, you can only come back to me!" Jane Mo''s eyelashes trembled wildly, and tears filled her eyes almost instantly. "Zixiao, do we have to do this?" Why can''t we have tears on our cheeks? Why can''t we control them Chu Zixiao subconsciously wants to wipe Jian Mo''s tears The woman was strong as if she had never cried in front of him, and now she cried as if in despair. Just as Chu Zixiao''s hand was about to reach out to his face, Jian Mo subconsciously deviated his head. Fingers, gently curled and bent, Chu Zixiao''s fundus was stiff with self mockery for a while, and took it back. Jane Mo looked at him with red eyes. "Even if you don''t give me medicine, I won''t come back to you... Do you understand? Even if I gradually disappear completely in your life, you don''t care, do you?" Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but looked at Jian Mo''s sadness. "Zixiao, this... Is not love!" "Jane is sad..." "That''s possession..." Chu Zixiao''s voice was always very light, as if unmoved. "If you can''t get it, maybe... Destruction is the best." Jian Mo sat in the taxi and looked at the passing street view outside the window. Chu Zixiao''s last words of "destruction" echoed in her mind, with a dull face. She didn''t drive. She''s not fit to drive at the moment. Her time may be running out. She can''t implicate innocent people without being responsible for herself. Is there really no way? Jane Mo''s wooden fan moved her eyes The driver drove the car and occasionally looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror as if he was worried. "Miss, sometimes it''s not a big deal to be lovelorn..." the driver kindly advised, "you''re so beautiful that you can meet better people. It''s not good to go to the bar and get drunk alone! Why don''t... I take you home?" Jian Mo mechanically took back his sight and looked at the driver. Gradually, the corner of his mouth overflowed with a confused smile Look, there are still good people in this world, aren''t there? Strange drivers can comfort you. Zixiao just went astray. He won''t really want to see her disappear Perhaps, as long as she is firmly by ah Chen''s side, everything will get better? Jane Mo seems to be hypnotizing herself, and now she can only hypnotize herself... Looking forward to miracles. Under the drizzle, the gloomy sky shrouded the whole world, and part of the emperor building seemed to be in the clouds. In the dark office, there was no light at all, and there was a gloomy smell. The mobile phone suddenly vibrated on the desk, and the weak light reflected Gu Beichen''s cold facial lines. He took his cell phone and crossed the text message "Miss Jane has entered m3, and Miss Li is there!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gradually deepened and stared at the mobile phone... Until the screen automatically darkened. Almost at the same time, self mockery crossed the corners of his mouth. Footsteps sounded treacherous in the quiet corridor. At the same time, the door of the office had been opened. The light spilled in from the outside and knocked down the two figures standing at the door in the office, but people couldn''t see their faces. Gu Beichen looked. When he saw the man standing at the door, he couldn''t hide his expectation and hurried up Chapter 452 Li Yunze turned on the light, and in an instant, the huge office was full of brilliance. The Dragon owl''s face was carved like a carving. There was no half expression on it. He walked forward... Looked at Beichen''s hard to hide fatigue and sat down opposite. "Dragon boss?" Gu Beichen frowned and wrote waiting at the bottom of his eyes. But the Dragon owl didn''t seem to be in a hurry. He took out his cigarette. After the steel lighter ''clang'', the cigarette was lit. Gu Beichen''s eyebrows were already frowning together, so he waited, and his eyes were obviously anxious. The Dragon owl took a breath and flicked the ash while indifferently highlighting the smoke. Li Yunze leaned on his desk with his arms around his chest and slightly tilted his eyes... Although Gu Beichen was worried, he still fell into his eyes with a calm look. "You should be prepared..." the Dragon owl slowly opened his mouth, and his Obsidian eyes fell on Gu Beichen''s face. "Unless you find the last medicine, Jian Mo''s outcome will not be very optimistic." Something was instantly evacuated from the body, and the last glimmer of hope seemed to be gone. Gu Beichen sat down and lowered his eyes. His slow action was completely inconsistent with his vigorous and resolute temperament now "What is the worst result?" Gu Beichen''s voice is so calm that people can''t hear his emotions. However, it is because it is too calm that people are dignified. "Dead, or vegetative!" The Dragon owl said indifferently, "I got the thinning formula from Charles..." "It''s difficult to extract dilute medicine after several drugs are made..." Li Yunze opened his mouth in time. "It takes time... Even if it doesn''t take half a year, it can take at least three or four months!" Obviously, Jane Mo can''t wait. "Beichen..." Li Yunze sighed heavily. "Zixiao''s words are true. After Jian Mo took the third pill, he had to take the fourth pill in ten days... Within half a month at the latest!" "So..." Gu Beichen slowly raised his eyes and looked at Li Yunze. "I can only push her away?" It''s a question and an answer The Dragon owl took a cigarette indifferently and said slowly, "it depends on you. What kind of result do you want?" He twisted the cigarette out in the ashtray and looked at Gu Beichen with deep and sharp eyes. "Whether it''s the final madness or calm response... There''s something wrong and there''s nothing wrong." "I don''t want her to leave this world..." Gu Beichen said calmly, "if I live, I still have a chance!" Li Yunze was moved by the sour nose and experienced so much Beichen. Even in the face of such a situation, he was at least calm. Just "Have you thought about the next question?" The Dragon owl was more calm and even asked coldly, "the unknown of this medicine?" Perhaps, everything... Is just a void. M3Bar¡£ The continuous music is full of euphemism but moaning without illness. In the bar, there are quiet drinks in twos and threes. The atmosphere is obviously relaxed, but full of depression. Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue drank cup by cup. Neither of them spoke, and the atmosphere fell to the freezing point. "Girl, why don''t you go out with me?" Li Xiaoyue has a dull tongue. Jane Mo nodded with blurred eyes. They settled the bill and left the bar The rain has stopped, but there is a thick moisture in the air. M3 is very close to Los Angeles square. The last time two people came here for a drink was four years ago On that day, it also seemed to be drizzling. In addition, it was late, and there were few people in the square. A few days after Li Xiaoyue''s miscarriage, Jian Mo was "driven out" of lanze garden by Gu Beichen. How much is today... Like that day? Like people sigh fate... Sometimes it''s really wonderful. "Xiao Yue..." Jian Mo sat on the beautiful woman on the corridor and drank a lot, but her head was clear. "You can not take this case." Li Xiaoyue also sat down. Xu drank more than Jane mo. she was obviously a little drunk. "I don''t answer... What can I do?" Tears rolled down without warning and burned my cheeks. "You don''t know how I felt when Jin Shuman came to me this afternoon..." Li Xiaoyue laughed at herself. "I don''t have the courage I didn''t care about four years ago. When she threatened me to take this case with what Yang Ziyu did to me, I found that people really live and go back." "No..." Jane Mo Muran fanned her eyes. "We had it and were afraid to lose it. You are the status now, and I... it''s him!" With that, Jane Mo slowly leaned against Li Xiaoyue, and the corners of her mouth laughed at herself. My head hurts and I feel dizzy The scenery and lights in front of me seem to have become double-layer, swinging around. "Xiao Yue, I''m sorry..." Jian Mo''s voice was a little grumbling. Li Xiaoyue grabbed Jian Mo, "why do you say sorry to me?" "When you need encouragement and support most, I can''t bring you positive energy..." Jane Mo''s nose is sour again. She feels that today is the most crying day in history. Seeing a little shadow related to Gu Beichen, or thinking of him, she couldn''t help it. Li Xiaoyue hugged Jian Mo, "you have me by your side, I have you by your side... This is the best. At least, we all know... And each other''s support." Jane Mo smiled, but tears flowed down "Xiao Yue..." said Jian Mo with a smile. Tears fainted at the corners of his mouth and burned his heart bitterly. "The more we have to face the irreversible situation, the more we have to be strong and brave." The smile on the corner of her mouth became bigger and bigger, even if the tears kept flowing, "only girls who love to laugh and have the courage to face will have good luck..." Speaking, Jane ran to the middle of the square He opened his arms, combined with the music of the square, and began a person''s Tango under the misty eyes. She is obsessed with tango. In her life, she only dances double tango with a man named Gu Beichen... He is the first time she has too many, so what can he do for the first time? "Gu Beichen..." Jian Mo looked ahead while rotating, as if Gu Beichen was rotating with her at the moment. "I won''t leave you... How firm this'' no ''is, you may not understand it at all!" Jane Mo smiled and her eyes bent However, tears fell down. Lift and bend your legs and slide out slowly to one side Finally, Jian Mo''s face drooped slightly in the other direction, and her tears fell on the small pool around her, rippling the light on it in circles. Li Xiaoyue flapped her eyes powerlessly, and tears also pasted her eyes She got up and staggered to Jane mo. "Girl, let''s... Ah..." Before Li Xiaoyue finished her words, her foot suddenly sprained. Suddenly, her whole body lost its balance and fell to one side. Jane Mo was suddenly surprised and subconsciously wanted to pull Li Xiaoyue, but she forgot that her posture at the moment was still in the tango posture On the square, two women fell down in strange postures However, when they were about to make close contact with the ground, the two figures rushed over very quickly... Almost at the same time, they pulled the two women back at the last moment Chapter 453 Jane Mo''s head became more dizzy because of her back and forth shaking She looked at the people in front of her blurred eyes. For a while, they became two, for a while, they became four, and then they overlapped together However, before we could see it clearly, it was decomposed into several virtual ones. "Don''t shake!" Jane Mo waved her hand angrily and pouted angrily. However, the man was not obedient at all, and he was still shaking vigorously. Jian Mo looked at his head swinging back and forth in front of him, and raised his hand suddenly in anger, trying to stabilize it Just listen to the crisp sound of "pa", as if the surrounding atmosphere was followed and dignified in an instant. "Don''t... don''t move!" Jian Mo said angrily, "I can''t see clearly!" Gu Beichen looked at the drunken Jian Mo deeply, and the pain in the bottom of his eyes had filled the whole face. The first mock exam is as like as two peas. Jane Mo said in a muffled voice, and then her hand began to beat back and forth, "a lot of husbands... Ha ha!" Li Yunze held Li Xiaoyue, frowned at Jian Mo''s unscrupulous "fan" beating Gu Beichen, and sighed secretly. "Gu Beichen," said Jian Mo angrily, "can you... Can you stop... Shaking? I... I can''t see... I can''t see you..." Jane Mo fanned her heavy eyelids twice. Finally, after a while of dizziness, she slowly closed her eyes. "What now?" Li Xiaoyue, who could not distinguish the southeast from the northwest, looked at the one held in his hand, and Li Yunze frowned. Gu Beichen slightly attached himself, and without saying anything, he grabbed Jian mo. Li Yunze asked when Jian Mo''s "ah" came, "Hello, Gu Beichen... What about this one?" "Get in the car!" Gu Beichen kept walking, and the two words spilled over his thin lips indifferently. Xiao Jing saw the two people coming one after the other with Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue in their arms. He hurriedly opened the door and went to the driver''s seat after they all got on the bus. "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing looked back at Gu Beichen and waited for his instructions. Gu Beichen looked at the two drunken women around him and was silent. Then he slowly opened his mouth: "go to the place where Li Xiaoyue lives..." Xiao Jing listened, his temples moved slightly and nodded heavily. Start the car, Xiao Jing silently drives the car to Li Xiaoyue community, and occasionally looks in the rearview mirror... Gu Beichen gently strokes Jian Mo, who has settled down. The gentle action is like treating precious porcelain for fear that it will break again. Li Yunze also looked back, and his face suddenly became dignified... His lips moved and wanted to say something, but when he reached his mouth, he swallowed back. Beichen, what else can he say? What can you say? The car stops at the building of Li Xiaoyue community. Xiao Jing gets off and opens the door. Gu Beichen holds Jian Mo and Li Yunze holds Li Xiaoyue and goes upstairs Gu Beichen took off Jian Mo''s shoes and covered her with a quilt... Attached to her body, and a gentle kiss fell on her lips. "Well..." Jian Mo seemed to cry uneasily, "ah Chen... Don''t push me away..." The whispering voice came through a plea, with a faint cry, "I don''t want to leave you... Don''t..." Something suddenly stung in his heart. Gu Beichen was so painful that he could hardly breathe. Painfully closed his eyes, Gu Beichen slowly lifted up, looked at Jian Mo with a tight frown, and gently stroked her cheek with his thick finger belly "You said that you would strengthen your love for me no matter what... Momo, it''s time to really test us." The gentle words echoed magnetically in the small second bedroom, showing the helplessness under self mockery. Gu Beichen attached himself again and dropped a kiss almost worshipped on Jian Mo''s forehead Mo''er, no matter what the final outcome is, we should be responsible for our own life For you, I won''t fall easily. Please also work harder for me No matter how sad and heavy the night is, it will eventually pass. When the dawn tears the darkness of the East, a touch of dawn shows new hope, and pushes away the thick clouds, a new day comes with the unknown. "Well..." Jane Mo just felt that there was a shot put in her head and kept rolling back and forth. She snorted, covered her temples with her hands, and slowly opened her eyes. The illusory environment gradually became clear in the blurred fundus of her eyes. Jian Mo looked around and determined that she was at Li Xiaoyue''s house, frowning and rising. For the memory of last night, Jane Mo is a little vague at the moment, but she seems to be dancing tango in the square? Then She seems to have seen Gu Beichen? There was a knock on the door, and then the door was opened "Girl," Li Xiaoyue''s face also has the hangover of drunkenness, "how did we get back?" Jane was dazed and shook her head. Li Xiaoyue walked over with a decadent step, and the man fell down on the bed. "We''re still very powerful. We can come back to sleep when we''re broken." "Xiao Yue..." "Huh?" "Did we see Gu Beichen last night?" Jane Mo asked uncertainly. "Gu Beichen?" Li Xiaoyue glanced at Jian Mo, "girl, haven''t you woke up yet?" Jane Mo frowned It seems to be quite real. She doesn''t want him too much to hallucinate, does she? But... It seems unlikely that he will be there. How could the plot be so coincidental? Even if it rains after drinking in m3 twice, I meet Gu Beichen every time when I dance tango Sure enough, I think too much. Jane Mo was a little discouraged and lowered her eyes while laughing at herself. "When I saw him drunk, it turned out... It was just a dream when I woke up." Jane Mo took a deep breath. "I used to think such lines on TV were very hypocritical. It turned out that when they fell on me, they were sad." Li Xiaoyue got up and looked at Jian Mo, "Niu, we can all walk over... I can overcome that memory, you can overcome irreversibility... We can all!" Jane Mo''s black pupil looked at Li Xiaoyue cautiously, and then gently hugged her, "yes... We can all. Even if the world turns its back, we can still laugh at all problems." Li Xiaoyue''s face showed a trace of complex emotion, but it disappeared in an instant, "it must be OK!" It''s like cheering each other up. When the sun spread again in Los Angeles, the two women renewed their fighting spirit for their lives Jane Mo took a taxi and went to the mid level villa... She took out her mobile phone and opened it with expectation. There was a missed call and four text messages. Jian Mo subconsciously opened the missed call first, and her eyes were filled with expectation... It can be seen that when Chu Zixiao called, the light in her eyes dimmed in an instant. When I opened the text message, it seemed that I had predicted... Sure enough, none of them was sent by Gu Beichen. With a self mocking smile, Jane Mo curled her lips and swallowed the surging sadness back. I haven''t seen the content of the short message yet. The clear voice of the host came from the radio "The wedding was just held by Lu man and the reporter in Luocheng last night..." Chapter 454 Jian Mo frowned slightly and subconsciously looked at the small LCD screen under the workbench, as if there were photos of Gu Beichen and Lu man entering and leaving the hotel. "Chen Shao and Lu man were photographed in Donghai city before. This time, they went out and entered the hotel in pairs..." The host''s tone showed a sense of schadenfreude into Jian Mo''s ears. "More people broke the news that Gu Beichen and Jian mo were not as loving as we all saw... The two people''s performance eventually cracked, and the previous kissing event between Su Junli and Jian Mo at Mrs. Gu''s birthday banquet was the fuse of this event..." Jane Mo quietly listened to the host''s "analysis" and disclosure, and there was not much expression on her face. The driver looked in the rearview mirror and recognized Jane Mo when she got on the bus. Hearing such news, she can still look the same, and she doesn''t know whether she doesn''t care or has already prepared in her heart The driver "kind" wanted to tune the radio station, but was stopped by Jane mo. "Listen!" Jane Mo spoke faintly. The driver was slightly stunned and said "Oh". "It is said that Chen Shao and Lu man entered the hotel around 8 o''clock and didn''t leave until the early morning..." Jane Mo felt a little lost. When she and Xiao Yue left the bar, it was about ten o''clock, right? Sure enough, she didn''t see him... It was all her fantasy. What did the host say? Jane Mo didn''t listen. She just fell into her own thoughts and looked down. The driver glanced back from time to time in the rearview mirror. Seeing Jane Mo so, he thought she was sad. Her husband and gossip actress went to the hotel for so long that no one believed it when they said they were just eating and chatting Women who marry into a rich family just look at the scenery. "Hello, here you are!" The driver''s words pulled back Jane Mo''s thoughts. She subconsciously glanced at her eyes, and sure enough, she arrived Give me the money, get off, and Jane Mo goes back to the villa. As soon as she entered the gate, Jane Mo felt that the atmosphere was a little strange. She looked at the gardener and the cleaning servant who were pruning the trees in doubt, and pushed the door open with doubt. I thought there was a dog blood story going on. When I saw Gu Beichen and Lu man or a woman kissing However, Jane Mo felt her brain was a little big. In the quiet space, there is a treacherous and dignified atmosphere, and the coming breath is depressing. "Aunt Luo?" Jane Mo looked sideways and shouted when she saw aunt Luo over the table. Aunt Luo''s face was a little strange. She looked at Jane Mo and subconsciously looked upstairs. Jane Mo looked down aunt Luo''s line of sight... And slowly frowned. Gu Beichen won''t directly enlarge the move. Which woman is rolling the sheets on their bed with? The idea of "bang" exploded in her mind. Jane Mo moved her eyes and her breathing became urgent. Just came back from the news, she thought all the way Gu Beichen is forcing her to leave him, so there is such news. Just now, she was still thinking that Gu Beichen would make a show with other women in front of her to stimulate her. She also told herself that she couldn''t believe it! But now Jane Mo swallowed secretly, clenched her hand, raised her steps and went upstairs. When someone stood in front of the bedroom, she closed her eyes and took a deep breath Even if he rolled the sheets with other women, she wouldn''t leave. Just Why does the feeling of instant suffocation come, and she can''t hold up the pain? Slowly open your eyes, while Jane Mo holds her breath, she suddenly presses down the doorknob and pushes the door open Subconsciously, my eyes fell on the big bed The flat bed surface is cold and hard, but it is warmed by the sunlight reflected from the window. There was no imagined picture. Jane Mo breathed out secretly, and her eyes moved slightly. When she landed somewhere, she was suddenly stunned. "Little madam..." aunt Luo''s voice remembered from behind, showing the dignity of forbearance. "Chen Shao said... You must move out of the villa today." Jane Mo looked at the box that had been packed and stood in place, unable to respond for a long time. "If..." aunt Luo''s voice became heavier and heavier. "If you don''t leave... Everyone in the villa, including me, must leave..." Jane Mo mocked herself and said, "aunt Luo, is it particularly stupid for a smart man like him to force me with gossip and dismissal?" Aunt Luo didn''t speak, but her nose was sour. "He always said that I was crying because of my stupid IQ..." Jane Mo smiled at the corners of her mouth. "In fact, he was crying because of his stupid EQ!" Aunt Luo looked away and began to secretly wipe her tears. Jane Mo took out her mobile phone and looked at the silhouette of Gu Beichen on the screen. The smile at the corners of her mouth widened A text message was stuffed into the mobile phone, and Gu Beichen took it and opened it indifferently. Mo''er: I won''t leave, not now, never. Gu Beichen looked at the plain text message, and the ink pupil became deeper and deeper The mobile phone vibrated again in his hand, and another text message from Jian Mo arrived: ah Chen, I fell in love with you for two years, and you waited for four and a half years... We''ve only been together for two months. Are you sure you want to push me away? Gu Beichen closed his eyes painfully. The mobile phone kept shaking in his hand. After several times, he had the strength to open his eyes Mo''er: I''ll tell you with my actions that I won''t leave. Mo''er: you can ignore me and even have all kinds of gossip with Lu man or other women. I don''t care... Even if people all over the world are watching me laugh, I won''t leave. Mo''er: if I become a joke in the eyes of people all over the world, it''s what you want to see! The sound of ''Gaga'' came from holding the mobile phone Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen and frowned slightly. Obviously... He knocked on the door and came in. Chen Shao didn''t hear him at all. Suddenly... Something appears in a rapid arc across the fundus of the eye. There was a bang. Xiao Jing looked at the mobile phone that was hit on the wall and bounced to the ground, and his heart was heavy for a moment. Gu Beichen closed his eyes reluctantly. Because he was too hard, his hand was shaking How can she bear to see the world laugh at him? Jian Mo, his Jian mo... Seized his weakness. She threatened him with herself so that he couldn''t let go. The mobile phone is buzzing on the ground. If the atmosphere is not too dignified, Xiao Jing wants to praise the quality of the mobile phone. Come forward and pick up the mobile phone. You can still see the caller ID "Mo''er" on the broken screen "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing said in a heavy voice, "it''s madam Shao!" Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes, and the bottom of his eyes was already scarlet. Xiao Jing handed over his mobile phone. Gu Beichen looked at the name under the broken screen as if he saw their broken love. Pick it up and put it in your ear "Husband..." Jian Mo''s soft voice seemed to pass through time. "How about I set up a tent outside the villa?" Chapter 455 The soft voice seemed as if nothing had happened, but what she said was full of sadness. Gu Beichen didn''t answer immediately, but his eagle eyes were already deep. Xiao Jing stood aside. If the atmosphere in the office was dignified just now, it was completely depressed at the moment As a bystander, he could instantly feel the degree of Chen Shao''s heart squeezing... Subconsciously twisted his eyebrows. "That''s a private area..." Gu Beichen''s voice was cold, and his cold face was sad. "Eh?" Suddenly, I forgot something about Beichen Gu Beichen frowned. Jane Mo smiled happily, "Gu Beichen, why do you drive me away?" She raised her eyebrows. "It seems that... Some people''s movable and real estate are now under my name?" "..." Gu Beichen''s eyebrows frowned tighter. Jian Mo was a little proud, "so it seems that I can''t move... After all, I live in the real estate under my own name. It seems that there''s no problem." Gu Beichen saw something at the bottom of his eyes, and gradually, the surface emerged from the depths "Well, the problem is solved, then I won''t disturb my husband to work..." Jane Mo grinned. "I cook at night, and my husband remembers to come back to eat ha! Moda!" Jian Mo finished saying that, without waiting for Gu Beichen to speak, he had already hung up the phone. Weakly leaning against the wall, the smile on Jane Mo''s face gradually put away. She hung up the phone as fast as she ran away. She was afraid that she couldn''t hold on. She closed her eyes and covered up all the pain at the bottom of her eyes... It was not until about five minutes later that she slowly opened her eyes as if she had finished her psychological construction. After taking a deep breath, Jian Mo went to the study as if nothing had happened, took the design drawing off the table and began to design the interior of Shaoshi''s villa. Aunt Luo looked at a series of movements of Jane Morse. She didn''t know what Mrs. Shao said to Chen Shao, but... She smiled in the corners of her mouth. Should it be settled? She breathed out secretly, and aunt Luo was relieved... She was really afraid that Mrs. Shao would leave! Turning around, without disturbing Jane Mo, she went into the kitchen to prepare dinner. Almost at the same time, the disguise on Jane Mo''s face dispersed She glanced in the direction of the kitchen and looked back at her mobile phone. After touching her lips, Jane Mo picked it up and sent a text message to Chu Zixiao: Zixiao, have you tried to have a person in your dream and woke up to find it empty and helpless? Do you really want to fall into the helplessness of my leaving forever? Jane Mo looked at some "despicable" messages and mocked herself. Chu Zixiao stood in front of the window of the law firm''s office, looking out, holding a mobile phone with a text message interface open in his hanging hand No matter how warm the sun is, it can''t shine through the cold heart. The knock of "Dong Dong" came, and Chu Zixiao turned back "Yang Ziyu''s case was picked up by Li Xiaoyue..." Tang Yu raised the folder in his hand, "who are we going to give it to here?" Everyone is from the same school, and there are also those in Chu Tang Law Institute who are the same as Li Xiaoyue... They are all developing in Los Angeles, which is inevitable. "Me!" Chu Zixiao spoke faintly. "Ah?" Tang Yu opened his mouth in surprise and stared at Chu Zixiao, "ah Xiao, are you all right?" Chu Zixiao didn''t explain. Tang Yu frowned. "Chu Zixiao, let''s not talk about friendship... Is he Xiaoyue of your level too disgraced?" Chu Zixiao glanced at Tang Yu, turned around and continued to look outside The Wutong on the roadside has already blossomed, and it looks very nice in the sunshine. Tang Yu couldn''t stand turning his eyes. "For Jian Mo, you don''t even want the fucking principle..." he put down a sentence angrily, threw the folder on the desk and left angrily. The people of the law firm looked at each other one by one. Just now the office door was not closed, and everyone could hear Tang Yu''s last roar clearly Looking at his angry figure, he entered his office and felt that the air pressure of the law firm was low to a point. Han Zhenzhen looked at the direction of Chu Zixiao''s office and gradually clenched his hand holding the pen... Even, he secretly clenched his teeth and had an irrecoverable atmosphere on his face. ¡­¡­ Jian Mo saw that Chu Zixiao didn''t reply, so he smiled at the corner of his mouth and began to continue to do the design Now, only when she is immersed in design can she feel that everything is still hopeful. "Young lady, it''s lunch." Jian Mo subconsciously looked up at Aunt Luo. She wanted to say she wasn''t hungry, but she finally nodded with a smile. She has no right to consume herself and her life now After cleaning up a corner, Jian Mo looked at the dishes on the table... Took a deep breath, took a mobile phone, took a picture and sent it to Gu Beichen. Mo''er: there''s only one me at the lunch table. Will there be one more person for dinner? Xiao Jing had already changed Gu Beichen''s mobile phone quickly. Looking at the bottom of the bright and clean screen, Gu Beichen was unable to lie back on the seat. Susan knocked on the door with her lunch box and came in. She saw some decadent Gu Beichen. He sighed darkly, put the lunch box on the tea table and said, "Chen Shao, I''ll make you a cup of coffee." Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Susan frowned slightly and turned away When he made coffee, Gu Beichen still kept that movement. He just closed his eyes and didn''t move, giving the impression that he was asleep. Susan slowed down, put down her coffee and went out quietly... Although she knew Chen Shao didn''t sleep. His eyes were slightly red and he went back to the office. He saw Xiao Jing playing games with his mobile phone there. He was so angry that he grabbed the mobile phone, "are you still in the mood to play?" "Otherwise?" Xiao Jing raised his head and shrugged. Susan looked at him like this and wanted to hit his cell phone in the face. "In today''s situation, only the best condition can be maintained..." Xiao Jing sighed, "Susan, do you think there is fairness in this world?" "No..." Susan said coldly. Xiao Jing hooked up one corner of his mouth, "yes, no... So we can only face, reduce the injustice to the minimum and let ourselves accept the reasonable range." Susan frowned and looked at Xiao Jing. She didn''t know what he meant. Xiao Jing didn''t intend to explain. He just took his mobile phone and continued to play games As time goes by, it seems that there is nothing we can do but waste it. The sky has dimmed down. Jian Mo looks up... The afterglow of the sunset dyed the sky red. Look at the ingredients prepared on the glass stage. Jane Mo wiped her hands and took her mobile phone to call Gu Beichen But it rang for a long time and no one answered. She was not surprised. Thumb on the screen quickly free, a text message sent in the past: I''ll wait for you to eat at night, no matter how late! Chapter 456 The soft piano music slowly reverberates in the huge space, which makes people''s nervous mood soothe. With one hand behind his back and the other holding the awakened red wine, the waiter poured it to the people on both sides of the table, stepped aside and said, "please take your time." Lu man looks at Gu Beichen and looks a little uneasy. Gu Beichen looked at his mobile phone, and there was no expression on his cold face "Chen Shao," Lu man asked after all, oppressed by the atmosphere, "from last night to today... Your purpose is not to force Miss Jane to leave, is it?" She played a lot of such a dog blood plot, but put it on Gu Beichen... How did she feel against it? Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but calmly received his mobile phone. "I don''t understand..." Lu man doesn''t mind being used. Recently, she has a movie to go on and has an affair with Gu Beichen, which is good for her. The longer you stay in the entertainment industry, you will understand what you want most. "Not hungry?" Gu Beichen opened his thin lips indifferently, and his voice showed indifference under alienation. Lu man grinned secretly. If Ben got to his mouth, he swallowed it back. The peaceful atmosphere and gentle piano music can''t dispel Gu Beichen''s indifference Lu man is doing what he is best at as an actor. He places himself in the role needed by the environment and plays a "little three" who finally steps from the ground to the surface! Compared with the atmosphere in the western restaurant, the living room of the mid level villa is empty and dignified like death. Jian Mo sat at the table and looked at the food prepared by herself on the table. The self mockery at the corners of her mouth was getting deeper and deeper She didn''t move, so she waited quietly She doesn''t leave, so... His way is not to come back? The lights of thousands of houses are gradually silent, and the sound of insects outside is gradually disappearing When the dawn in the East was torn and dark, and the dazzling but warm light shone in through the French window, Jian Mocai looked at it with a stiff and numb side It''s the next day. The corners of his mouth smiled, even if it was particularly ugly. After watching it for a while, when the dawn turned into dazzling dawn, Jane Mo only felt a little dizzy in her head She ignored it and just looked back. I don''t know whether it''s because I''ve been watching the sun for too long or because I haven''t slept all night. Jane Mo closed her eyes and opened them after adapting to it for a while. Took his cell phone and sent a text message to Gu Beichen: will there be news later? Do you sleep with a woman at night? Open the web page, when she sees the headlines, she smiles deeper [Chen Shaobao openly had dinner with Lu man, sent him back to his apartment and left at 6:00 in the morning!] Clearly know that everything is false, but why does the heart still hurt? Jane Mo''s nose became sour in an instant. She quickly looked up and forced the dense water mist back Chen, no matter what, I won''t leave! Jian morhu took a deep breath, lowered her eyes and sent a text message to Chu Zixiao: Zixiao, can you give me the last medicine? Do you have to watch me consume my life in sadness? In the morning sunshine, for office workers, no matter whether you were happy or unhappy the moment before, you have to face the fast-paced and tense life in order to live. In such a life, perhaps only the unhappiness of others, especially those who are better than themselves, can comfort themselves. "Tut Tut, how much love do you think two people have? It''s this one who has been in love for a long time..." "Yes! Today''s disclosure is too fierce... It turns out that Jian Mo is a shield. Gu Beichen''s heart is a star who is not approved by Gu''s parents." "They all picked out the news that Cen Lanxi had an appointment with Lu man and said that last time they gave her a check to leave chenshao... Lu man didn''t agree." "Yes, I don''t agree! The check has a limit, but Gu Beichen can be caught. That''s infinite assets..." "I can only ha ha... Some people are still very good. It turns out that they are just a substitute to block arrows..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The whole Lingyu international reacted the most fiercely to Gu Beichen''s overnight stay in Luman apartment. Except for the dignified faces on the floors of Xiangyu design department, everyone was looking at it with a state of schadenfreude. "Pa" came, and the one who photographed the magazine on the table in the evening stood up. "Too much!" Mu Xiaoran stared at the newspaper in his hand. He didn''t know how many times, trying to find some traces of PS or dislocation, but obviously... Not at all. Some red eyes and sour nose... Sister Mo must be very sad to see these? After taking his cell phone, mu Xiaoran tried to call Jian Mo several times But I''m afraid she didn''t see the news at all. What if she called and made sister Mo sad? The old people in the design department have dignified faces, the new couple and Jane Mo don''t have much friendship, and they are jealous... Although they don''t fall down like others on the surface, they are inevitably in a state of watching a good play. In front of Tang Haoyang is a newspaper. The front page headline is also the scandal between Gu Beichen and Lu man When the mobile phone rang, he took out his mobile phone from under the newspaper, looked at it and answered, "Hello, Tang Haoyang." "Hello, this is the Design Institute..." the other party''s voice was somewhat business estranged. "The design drawing of Xiangyu''s film and Television City under Huaye was investigated, the design was unreasonable and was not approved." "Unreasonable design?" Tang Haoyang subconsciously asked, "what do you mean?" The other party was impatient, "if you don''t understand, let your person in charge and the designer come over..." Tang Haoyang''s eyebrows have been frowned together, "OK, thank you!" The other party "uh huh" and hung up. Architectural design needs to be reported to the official for filing and approval. Xiangyu is a listed company. Those involved in architectural design will do simulation experiments. It is impossible to have such a situation as "unreasonable design" Besides, Jian Mo is an experienced UCL top student! Tang Haoyang first called Yu Ziyun, "Mr. Yu, look..." "Let me call Jane mo." Yu Ziyun said, "no, I can only go and have a look." The construction project is large, and he, the head of Xiangyu, must also be present. "President Yu?" Jane Mo''s voice was a little dull when she received the call. "Not feeling well?" Yu Ziyun asked with concern. Jane Mo pulled down the corner of her mouth. "Her throat is a little uncomfortable..." she paused and asked, "what''s up?" "There''s something wrong with the design filing of Huaye," Yu Ziyun said. "Look at your time. If you can, go with me." Jane Mo was silent, and there was a thought in her mind But she resisted to think. She didn''t know how she would face it if ah Chen "operated" in it. "I''ll have time later..." Jane moo said at the corner of her mouth. "In an hour, we''ll meet directly at the gate of the design institute." Chapter 457 After washing, Jane Mo changed her clothes and hurried downstairs. When she got to the stairs, she only felt that her legs and feet were soft... If she hadn''t hurriedly held the handrail of the stairs, I''m afraid she would have to roll down. A slight feeling of dizziness came. Jane Mo closed her eyes and opened them slowly after a long time. There was no dizziness just now, but there was a weak feeling of acid swelling all over the body. "Shao..." aunt Luo happened to pass downstairs. Seeing Jane Mo like this, she hurried up, "Madam Shao, are you uncomfortable?" There was concern in her anxious voice. Aunt Luo looked at her face, which could not even be covered by light makeup, and twisted her eyebrows with worry. Jane Mo shook her head. "Didn''t sleep well last night..." she went downstairs with aunt Luo''s help. "Aunt Luo, I''m going out. Can you find me a driver?" "Do you want to go out later?" Aunt Luo asked anxiously, "I''ll get you some blood tonic sugar water first?" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and shook her head. "It''s a little urgent." Aunt Luo moved her lips and stopped talking. "Then I''ll call the driver for you." "Thank you, aunt Luo." Aunt Luo shook her head and looked anxiously at Jane mo before calling the driver. Jane Mo lay on the car and looked at the passing street view. Gradually... Her sight became lax. Even if she didn''t sleep all night, she didn''t seem to feel sleepy at all... If she could ignore her physical fatigue. Once in a while, Lu shangman and Lu shangman are on the hook of the mall, and it seems that they are all mocked by Lu shangman While waiting for the traffic light, the driver looked at Jian Mo in the rearview mirror. In fact, he admires this woman. No matter what Chen Shao is for, she can be neither arrogant nor impetuous... She is better than many women. When the green light is on, the driver starts the car and continues to drive to the Design Institute "Young lady, here we are!" The driver said after stopping the car. Jane Mo took back her thoughts and subconsciously looked aside. Then she said "Oh" and wanted to get off the bus, "don''t wait for me, I''ll wait for myself to go back." The driver pondered, "I''d better wait for my little grandmother here?" "No, I may have to go back to the company later..." Jane Mo said calmly. "I''ll just take a taxi later." The driver didn''t force it. He just started the car and left after Jane Mo entered the design institute. Yu Ziyun has arrived. When he saw Jian Mo, he came forward When he reached his mouth, he suddenly turned his mouth when he saw Jane Mo''s bad face. "Doesn''t he look in good spirits?" Jane Mo Yang smiled and didn''t explain more. Yu Ziyun is also a person who rolls in the mall. In addition, the scandal of these days... Whether true or false, he seems to feel that there are subtle changes between Jian Mo and Gu Beichen. "What''s the matter with design?" Jane Mo changed the subject. "I just went in first," Yu Ziyun motioned Jian Mo to go in together, "saying there was a problem with the design drawing." Jane moped her lower lip and didn''t speak. Yu Ziyun suddenly stopped, "Jane Mo, do you have anything to say?" "I don''t know..." Jane Mo laughed at herself. "Maybe I think too much." Yu Ziyun frowned, as if he understood something, but he didn''t say it. "Go and have a look first?" Jane opened her mouth. Yu Ziyun nodded and they went to the design office together "Xiangyu''s?" The staff member inquired, then went to the file box, took out the project report and said, "there is a problem with the overall proportion, and it''s refuted." Jane Mo frowned. "Excuse me, where is the rejected part?" "I''m not a designer. How do I know?" The staff sneered, "go back and see for yourself... Everyone comes to ask me, and I''ll design it." Jane Mo frowned secretly. She was disgusted with the staff''s attitude, but she didn''t show it. Take out the project approval. It doesn''t say anything, but simply expounds the reasons for rejection... There is no explanation of what went wrong. Yu Ziyun took a rough look at the design drawing, which was submitted after he reviewed it before, and there was no problem at all "There is no problem with this picture..." Yu Ziyun frowned and said. The staff seemed impatient and rolled their eyes, "then you go to the project leader to say hello, I don''t know... I''m just conveying." Yu Ziyun''s evil face gradually showed a deep cold, but it didn''t happen. He just motioned for Jian Mo and went out together. "What do you think?" Yu Ziyun asked. Jane Mo Muran fanned her eyes and calmly replied, "it''s possible that I implicated the company..." There is no problem with the design. The attitude of the design institute is obviously wrong... The only thing she can think of is Gu Beichen''s intervention. Yu Ziyun frowned slightly and looked at Jian mo... He is not a gossip, but he is also very curious at the moment. "Jane Mo, what''s the matter with Chen Shao?" Jian Mo looked at Yu Ziyun and then looked ahead. His voice was clearly sad, but he said calmly, "I don''t know... It''s estimated that the whole world doesn''t like me and him!" Yu Ziyun''s frown is tighter "Mr. Yu, go back to the company to see if the design can be fine tuned?" Jane Mo lifted her step with a sigh. Although she knew in her heart, even if she adjusted it, it would be fruitless. Yu Ziyun drove to Lingyu international. The atmosphere in the car was dignified. What they don''t know is that the more serious things waiting for them are still behind. Jane Mo took out her mobile phone and still didn''t have Gu Beichen''s phone and text message. Laughing at herself, she sent a text message: in this world, no one or thing is more important in my heart than you Jian Mo''s nose was sour and astringent for a moment. She quickly turned her head and looked out of the window to prevent the dense water mist at the bottom of her eyes from falling down. Gu Beichen was in a meeting. When his mobile phone rang, the head of the financial department was making a recent report. He looked down at the contents of his mobile phone and stared at what the financial supervisor said. He didn''t listen to a word any more. Hold the phone in your hand and gradually tighten it. Xiao Jing swallowed it secretly, hardened his scalp and whispered, "Chen Shao?" Everyone looked at Gu Beichen and was surprised when they guessed the content of the message. Since Gu Beichen took over the emperor, under no circumstances has he ever been so out of control ¡­¡­ Yu Ziyun stopped under the parking space and went to Xiangyu design department with Jian Mo by elevator. At the same time, Yu Ziyun''s phone rang in good time. He looked at the call and picked it up when they stepped out of the elevator, "I just arrived at the design department..." Then he hung up. Almost at the same time, Tang Haoyang strode out of the office, "president Yu..." He shouted, looked at Jian Mo and said solemnly, "Huaye doesn''t know how to get the news that there is a basic error in the design drawing... They asked to terminate the contract and start JK''s pre selection scheme at the same time!" Chapter 458 "According to reliable information, there was a sudden change about Xiangyu architectural design firm taking over the film and television city invested by China Entertainment..." "According to no celebrity disclosure, the design drawing of China entertainment film and television city and the approval of the design institute were rejected." "China Entertainment executives have just issued a statement. Due to some irreversible reasons... The film and television city design will start the filing design." "After the termination of the contract between Xiangyu and Huaye, JK''s design team will sign a contract with Huaye as a registered designer... Before the draft comparison, JK and Xiangyu, or Shen Chu and Jian Mo, had fought openly and secretly..." "Jian Mo''s double harvest of love and career didn''t last long. Now it doesn''t come singly... After being photographed by reporters, Chen Shao and Lu man entered the pair, they ushered in a career Waterloo..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± At the same time, the media are springing up like mushrooms, and "Shua Shua" is risking things about Huaye changing its design drawings. Even, while quickly startling the whole Xiangyu, Jane Mo was caught off guard. "Sister mo..." Xiang night and mu Xiaoran stood beside Jian Mo, looking worried. Jane Mo''s face was a little ugly because she didn''t sleep all night and the news at the moment. The more Gu Beichen wants to force her, the more she will stick to it! She won''t be sad At first, she thought the design hit the idea and revised it in such a short time. He encouraged her without trace. Today... In order to force her to leave him, he pressed her with design. They should face all the problems together, shouldn''t they? He carried it on himself. What is it? Jane Mo smiled at herself secretly, and her heart had twisted together. "I''m fine..." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth. Mo Xiaoya and others frowned and looked at each other one after another, as if, why is the entertainment thing? Everyone can vaguely guess what. "Mo Mo," Qiao Zirong asked anxiously, looking at Jian Mo''s increasingly pale face, "you don''t look very well. First..." "Sister Mo?" Before Qiao Zirong finished his words, mu Xiaoran screamed. Jian Mo''s eyes are unreal and empty... The whole person seems to have been drained of his soul and collapsed slowly The sound of rapid footsteps, the sound of rollers rubbing the ground Jian Mo looked at the shaking and rotating world from her eyes and felt that all the sounds were getting farther and farther away from her. "Drop, drop, drop..." The heart rate instrument sounded rhythmically in the quiet ward. In that voice, there was depression. "What kind of dog blood setting is this?" At night, he murmured discontentedly in the corridor, "even if sister Mo really has a terminal disease... Bah bah... I mean if!" She skimmed her mouth. "If sister Mo has something... It''s that anyway, it''s sister Mo who forced us to leave president Gu... Now it''s president Gu who forced sister Mo to leave?" "Us?" Mu Xiaoran was angry. "Is it ours or not?" Xiangwan was stunned and wanted to refute. He found that things are really developing now... His mouth opened and then closed, feeling angry with himself. Mu Xiaoran reached into his pocket and touched his cell phone. "I''ll go to the bathroom..." She looked at several people and went to the direction of the bathroom... But finally entered the corridor. Looking at Gu Beichen''s phone number, mu Xiaoran was angry and didn''t call. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen was having a video conference when the phone rang As the shareholders'' meeting approached, he was so busy that he could hardly eat. Seeing that it was mu Xiaoran, he subconsciously said, "pause for five minutes!" When he answered the phone, he cut off the video signal. "President Gu..." Mu Xiaoran said coldly, "sister Mo is in the hospital." It was as if every time Jane Mo had something to do, as long as she was around, she would report to Gu Beichen... But the voice was obviously unfamiliar. Gu Beichen was silent. The first time Jian Mo entered the hospital, he learned from the bodyguard "Yes." Gu Beichen answered indifferently. "Just ''huh''?" Mu Xiaoran immediately widened his eyes. "I''m still in a meeting here," Gu Beichen said in a distant voice. "I''ll talk about it later." "Wait... Wait!" Mu Xiaoran was worried, "don''t you come and see sister Mo? Sister Mo just fainted!" Gu Beichen was silent. The eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly, and the bottom of his eyes had fallen into a black vortex. He opened his thin lips gently and said slowly, "when I''m finished here... OK, first!" Before mu Xiaoran could speak again, Gu Beichen had cut off the phone. He was afraid that his emotions could not be tensed Slowly close your eyes, Gu Beichen lies back on the chair... His cold face is like a carving, with hard to hide sadness. Mo''er, what do you want me to do with you? Don''t you understand that only by living can we go on? Gu Beichen''s mouth trembled slightly. Such uncontrollable emotion seemed to have used up all his life in these two days. Time, a little move. The sun at noon is dazzling and makes people anxious, and the hot air flow in midsummer is powerless. People who don''t want to work are gossiping Some people even wonder, how come after Jane Mo comes back, it seems that the news is around her every day? The pleasant piano music from the mobile phone broke the silence of the ward. Mu Xiaoran suddenly woke up and subconsciously took out his mobile phone... When he reacted, he knew it was Jian Mo''s. When he opened his bag and took out his mobile phone, mu Xiaoran thought it was Gu Beichen... Unfortunately, it wasn''t! Mu Xiaoran snorted angrily, subconsciously looking at Jian mo... Seeing that she woke up, he hurried over. "Sister Mo, are you awake?" Mu Xiaoran smiled in surprise. Jian Mo pulled the corners of her mouth hard, covered her eyes and didn''t see Gu Beichen''s loss. She looked slightly at the mobile phone in Mu Xiaoran''s hand. Mu Xiaoran just reacted and hurriedly said, "it''s Su Jun who left..." as she said, she picked it up and put it in Jian Mo''s ear. There was a moment of silence on the phone After a while, Su Junli''s soft voice came: "are you okay?" Just three words, but it seemed to poke Jian Mo''s tears... She was not strong at all, and her eyes turned red. Mu Xiaoran looked uncomfortable and knew that Jian Mo was usually arrogant. He simply turned his face and didn''t look at it. Two people hide their ears and steal the bell like this, but unfortunately, at this moment, they can only do so. "I..." "Don''t tell me you''re okay!" Su Junli interrupted Jian Mo, "Mo Mo, you forget that we have lived together for more than four years... And am I a master of psychoanalysis?" Jane Mo couldn''t help it anymore... Tears'' Susu ''fell down. Su Junli didn''t speak, but quietly felt the sadness at the moment, which was transmitted to his mind through radio waves. What should he do to make this woman happy and happy all the time? The door of the ward was opened at the right time Jian Mo and mu Xiaoran looked at the past almost at the same time... They all had an expectation at the bottom of their eyes. Chapter 459 Chu Zixiao opened the door and stood there. He saw that the eyes of Jian Mo and mu Xiaoran were filled with loss and disappointment. Jane Mo mocked herself and hung her eyes at the corner of her lower lip The man wants to force her away. He has begun to start with the design she values. How can he not help coming to see her? Mu Xiaomo, who is in love for the first time, doesn''t feel like a poor nephew now "Why did you faint again?" Chu Zixiao asked with a slight frown, and his voice was a little dark and hoarse. According to the mysterious man, even if Mo Mo faints, it will be ten days later... It''s only two or three days now. Jian Mo wanted to retort angrily: it''s not because of you! However, because mu Xiaoran was around, she held back. "I didn''t sleep well last night..." Jane Mo said calmly, "plus I haven''t been well lately." Euphemistic words, in the end, still spoke the complaint in her heart Mu Xiaoran felt that there was something wrong with the atmosphere between the two people. He left the corners of his mouth and said, "sister Mo, I''ll go to the bathroom..." Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at her, with a complex nod at the bottom of her eyes. Mu Xiaoran and Chu Zixiao greeted with a smile and left the ward... But at the moment of closing the door, she felt that the air in the ward seemed to be condensing gradually. Silence seems to be the only opening mode for Jian Mo and Chu Zixiao. "Are you happy with me?" Jian Mo clenched her hand, raised her head, and looked up at Chu Zixiao''s eyes. "Ah Chen began to explode gossip and even hit my design in order to push me away..." she mockingly hooked her lips, "are you particularly happy?" Chu Zixiao frowned slightly and then recovered his indifference. "He is forcing me to your side by hurting me and himself... Even in spite of the ensuing public opinion." Jane Mo sneered, "Zixiao, this... Is the way you treat people you respect and like!" Sentence by sentence accusations were like one hand, pinching and pinching his heart... Chu Zixiao couldn''t refute it. Now this situation is caused by him. Even if he regrets... He can only break his teeth and swallow it! "However, it seems that you are still dead..." the cold words overflow Chu Zixiao''s lips and are gloomy. "Mo Mo, if you leave, I will be sad... Just don''t know, who will be more sad between me and Beichen?" In a word, Jane Mo felt that her head was buzzing. She seemed unwilling to believe that Chu Zixiao was such a cold person. Jian Mo smiled. It was a cold smile, a mocking smile... There were self mockery and mockery of Chu Zixiao. "You really deserve to be my nephew..." Jane Mo gradually smiled and said coldly, "you can force me in the simplest way!" Anger overflowed in his eyes, but he endured it. Jane Mo clenched her teeth and squeezed out between her teeth word by word. "Zixiao... Ah Chen forced me to live. What about you?" The rhetorical question poked into Chu Zixiao''s heart like an ice cone, which was painful and cold Even though the pain in his heart was beyond his control, he still showed his indifference. "I said, whatever you think..." Chu Zixiao said indifferently, "you still have a week to think about..." after a pause, he slightly lowered his eyes, "Mo Mo, don''t wait until the last minute. No one can tell what happened." The regret of the fundus has spread, but the hanging eyes are completely covered. He didn''t know whether he was persuading Jian Mo or regretting that he had to wait until the last moment to see Jian Mo''s sadness and despair... But it was too late. "At that time, I''m afraid your departure will be a fatal blow to him..." Chu Zixiao restrained his thoughts at the bottom of his eyes and raised his eyes to Jane mo. In the past, one was confident and arrogant, with calm and calm, the other was indifferent and alienated, with firm hope... But now, they have become dead silence. "Chu Zixiao -" Jian Mo finally burst into a roar, "you''ve had enough!" Chu Zixiao ignored Jian Mo''s anger and said calmly, "don''t send me begging messages, because your weakness is because of Beichen... It will only make me more disgusted." Jane Mo''s body began to tremble, and her breath rose and fell in her chest because of the floc disorder. "Mo Mo, how calm were you before?" Chu Zixiao said coldly, "as long as you encounter Beichen, you lose your mind... If you beg me in the most impossible way, it will only make my heart......" he paused, moved his temples gently, and slowly said the last two words with his teeth firmly clenched, "... Harder!" Chu Zixiao took away his breath and said gently, "I''ll wait for you to come to me..." he stared at Jian Mo deeply, turned and stopped, and glanced back. "In fact, what if you don''t agree now? A week later, he will still send you to me." It''s as if you already know the result. No matter how many methods you use, you can''t resist the ending... It''s desperate as if your body has been evacuated. Jian Mo lies on the hospital bed feebly... Her eyes are empty and fall in front without any focus. There was silence in the ward, and the outside world was already bloody. The scandal between Gu Beichen and Lu man and Tianyu''s cancellation of Xiangyu''s design for unknown reasons have made the outside world talk about it This is not enough. Finally, Shen Chu''s filing design was enabled, which pushed Jian Mo to the forefront of the storm. In the past, Jane Mo and Gu Beichen, as well as how much people paid attention to her design... Now, how seriously she was trampled on. CEN Lanxi accompanied grandma Gu to have afternoon tea and turned to the topic of Jian mo "Mom, I said Beichen wouldn''t like Jian mo... How crazy is the news these two days? Beichen didn''t take care of it." Grandma Gu looked at xiacen Lanxi coldly and said calmly, "Xiaomo is the only granddaughter-in-law I admit..." In a word, if Cen Lanxi was ready, he was blocked back. "Lanxi, you mother can''t see through many things. I don''t blame you." Grandma Gu said coldly, "since you don''t care, you don''t care completely... I know you blamed me at the beginning, even now." "Mom..." Cen Lanxi shouted. "Don''t be busy refuting..." grandma Gu sighed, "when Mo yuan and Mo Huai were young, our thoughts were all on Mo Huai, so that Mo yuan''s temperament is weak and incompetent now..." When it comes to regret, grandma has obvious regrets. However, there are no regrets in this world She doesn''t know if Beichen can survive this time... Or if she has the life to see him survive this time. "So I brought Beichen to raise..." grandma Gu sighed. "However, you blame me... Completely ignore him!" She looked at Cen Lanxi and saw her complicated expression. She still said calmly, "in that case, don''t care! Including this chaotic moment... Don''t make trouble for him!" Chapter 460 Jane Mo left the hospital in the afternoon. She fainted completely because she didn''t sleep all night, and it didn''t matter. Mu Xiaoran was worried and sent her back to the villa before returning to the company. "Little madam..." aunt Luo looked at Jian Mo''s bad face and was worried. "Aunt Luo, I''m fine." Jane Mo said hurriedly, afraid of being concerned. Aunt Luo frowned and stopped what she wanted to say. Jane Mo also felt a little embarrassed and pulled the corners of her mouth, "I went upstairs to change my clothes and didn''t come back for dinner..." "Good!" Aunt Luo sighed and nodded. Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and went upstairs. Sitting on such a big bed, Jane Mo looked out of the window The sunlight that has moved to the West shines warm in the house, and the cold air of the air conditioner can''t stop the hot air flow. The wooden fan moved his eyes. Jian Mo took his mobile phone and called Li Xiaoyue "Girl?" Jane Mo was silent. "What''s the matter with you?" Li Xiaoyue looked at the picture of the prisoner who killed Yang Ziyu in front of her and took a deep breath, "I can do it, how about you?" Jane Mo''s mouth slightly raised, "I''m still insisting!" "Work together..." Li Xiaoyue said firmly, "we can all." Jane Mo seemed to be relieved in an instant, "well, we can all..." "I read the news..." Li Xiaoyue sighed, "girl, protecting your faith is the most basic." "It''s not easy to go up against the current. We may all work very hard, but I think we can cherish all the beautiful things only by wading through the thorns." Jane took a deep breath and said. Li Xiaoyue smiled, "come on!" "Work together!" Jane Mo smiled and said, "I continue to work hard, and you continue." ¡°OK£¡¡± Jane Mo hung up the phone, looked at the time, then changed her clothes and drove out of the door She went to the "delivery" fast-food restaurant, asked for the dishes that gave Gu Beichen fast-food, and went to the emperor group. No matter how chaotic the news is, Jian Mo is Gu Beichen''s wife... The president''s wife of the emperor. Even though her arrival surprised several people at the front desk, no one dared to stop her. "I''ll go over..." "Shanshan..." Zhao Shanshan ignored the call to her front desk and ran over. "Madam President..." Zhao Shanshan''s eyes twinkled. "Well... The president is in a meeting at the moment. Do you want to come back?" Jane Mo stopped. She looked at Zhao Shanshan for a while and frowned slightly. "Well, I''m..." Zhao Shanshan seemed a little worried and thought for a while before she said, "that''s the front desk where you sent... Well, the takeout to the president four years ago!" Jane Mo smiled, "I didn''t remember for a moment." Zhao Shanshan said it didn''t matter. "Well, the president has been very busy these days and has meetings every day... So..." "Never mind. I''ll just wait in his office." Jane Mo said and pressed the elevator. Zhao Shanshan was stunned and wanted to say something, but she didn''t know how to say it. "Worried about what I''ll see?" Jane Mo pressed the elevator she wanted to share. Seeing Zhao Shanshan''s stunned face, she smiled, "thank you!" She put her hand down and the elevator closed slowly Zhao Shanshan twitched uncontrollably at the corners of her mouth and looked distressed. "As soon as Lu man arrived, the president''s wife came... I don''t know whether it was a coincidence or something?" She looked at the closed elevator and whispered, "I hope nothing too hot has happened above." With her mouth curled, Zhao Shanshan returned to the front desk. "Shanshan, you worry too much... Can we worry about the president?" Zhao Shanshan heaved a sigh, drooped her shoulders and frowned. With a Ding, the elevator reached the top floor. Jane took a deep breath and went out with her lunch box Susan was obviously surprised when she saw Jane mo. after quickly exchanging eyes with Xiao Jing, she hurried forward. "Young lady, you..." Susan looked at the things in Jane Mo''s hand. "Come and deliver dinner to Chen Shao?" "Yes." Susan looked at Xiao Jing again and hurriedly said, "Chen Shao is in a meeting!" Anyway, Chen Shao had to... But she couldn''t bear to see Mrs. Shao sad. At least, it should not be when the design goes wrong today. "Your caliber is really consistent..." Jane Mo said faintly, "it doesn''t matter." Susan frowned. She didn''t know what Jane Mo meant by "it doesn''t matter". Jane Mo had raised her feet to the office. If you stop now, there will be no silver here. Jane Mo didn''t knock. It''s not impolite. She just wanted to see who was in there... They did everything they could to stop her. Xiao Jing and Susan''s heart both mentioned their throat. Their eyes looked at her movements and held their breath There was no one in the empty office. Jane Mo frowned, looked left and right, and looked puzzled. Xiao Jing was right behind. When he saw him, he hurried to say, "Chen Shao is really in the conference room, madam Shao, why don''t I give it to you..." "Ah..." Suddenly, a charming cry came from the lounge. The faces of the three changed in an instant. Xiao Jing swallowed hard, and the corners of his mouth twitched. He didn''t know what to say. Susan glared at him fiercely and thought to herself: usually her mouth can speak very well, but it doesn''t work at a critical moment. Jane Mo also grabbed the door handle and gradually used her strength. Because she tried too hard, her hands began to turn white. Although there was only a cry, for a woman who often tossed clouds and rain in bed with Gu Beichen, she couldn''t understand what happened in the lounge. She wants to go over and see who it is, even if she''s acting But she didn''t have the courage. Yes, no courage! She was afraid. In order to force her, he really staged a spring palace play in front of her. The eyelashes fanned a few times, Jane Mo bit her lower lip, tried to keep calm and pulled the corners of her mouth, "then... Then I''ll go first!" With that, she turned and wanted to leave. Because of the action of shaking hands, the fast food box hit Xiao Jing, and then it fell to the ground with a ''slap'' She subconsciously wanted to pick it up, but tears were already in her eyes. She paused and finally ran away. Even, she couldn''t wait for the elevator to run directly into the stairwell "Do you want to have a look?" Xiao Jing asked, looking at the empty corridor. "No?" Susan fanned her eyes. "At this moment, I''m afraid no one wants to see..." "Chen Shao is too much!" Xiao Jingshen sighed. "No?" Susan was helpless. "What can I do?" Xiao Jing was also sad. "The most sad... I''m afraid Chen Shao?" With that, he subconsciously looked at the office. Gu Beichen leaned against the door with self mockery on her cold face... Lu man stood behind her neatly dressed, a little embarrassed! Chapter 461 The sound of stepping on the stairs came from the open space with panic. "Well" came, and Jane Mo sprained with her foot empty. She subconsciously grabbed the handrail of the stairs. Bursts of tingling came from the ankle and cold sweat spilled from the forehead. Jane Mo breathed heavily, and she didn''t know whether it was because of pain or suffocation... She slowly sat down on the stairs, holding back her tears, and fell down uncontrollably. The sound of sobbing echoed faintly in the empty corridor. Even if I forbeared, the voice was still strange under grief. Jane Mo buried her face in her knees, and the sobbing sound of "sobbing" could no longer help coming intermittently There was sadness in the staircase, and the president''s office was dignified and breathless. "You can go..." Gu Beichen''s voice was so calm that people couldn''t hear any emotion. Lu man twitched slightly at the corner of his mouth and nodded without saying anything... He left. She was still on the set, and Gu Beichen called her on the phone... Even threatened how long she had to arrive, otherwise she would be blocked directly. In this scandal, she began to feel that she was hot for herself... But gradually, she found that she was a cannon fodder of strength! Lu man is a little angry, but he doesn''t dare to attack in front of Gu Beichen Especially just in the rest room, what''s the ambiguous cry that is comparable to wool film? The high-heeled shoes stepped on the carpet in the corridor and were silenced. However, Susan still saw Lu man''s dissatisfaction. With a heavy heart, I looked back at the falling lunch box on the ground Maybe it''s because Jane Mo just escaped too "ferocious", the lunch box has broken, and the food in it has been spilled into the bag, which is a little messy. When Susan was about to pick up the lunch box, a slender and powerful hand picked it up first Susan frowned slightly, lifted her eyes, and saw Gu Beichen slowly straighten up and turn into the office. At that moment, Susan''s nose was sour in an instant. When Gu Beichen saw that he put the lunch box on the tea table, took the meal paper and wiped the chopsticks that had been stained with food oil and juice, and ate it like this... Susan couldn''t help crying. She quickly covered her mouth and couldn''t bear to see it again. She turned and ran to the tea room Xiao Jing looked aside sadly, and his eyes were red. He couldn''t help it. He strode in and grabbed the chopsticks in Gu Beichen''s hand. "What to eat?" His voice roared, "if you want her to be nice to you, you shouldn''t have killed yourself just now!" Gu Beichen''s movements remained the same as before, except that he had no chopsticks in his hand. Seeing his appearance, Xiao Jingjing threw his chopsticks to the ground, "Chen Shao, you torture yourself like this, you torture Mrs. Shao like this... Enough, really enough!" Who knows that Gu Beichen, who has to deal with Gu mohuai in the company during the day, spends the rest of his time "tracking" and standing in front of Jian Mo''s bed one night? Who knows that each other just knows each other too well, and the sadness at the moment is not for themselves... But for each other? "What can I do?" Gu Beichen asked slowly, then raised his eyes, "tell me, what can I do?" Xiao Jing was stunned Yes, what can Chen Shao do? Xiao Jing closed his eyes sadly Some things can be done, some things are irreversible. Even if Li Shao gathered all the doctors to work overtime, he couldn''t prepare the medicine in a short time Now, it''s just a hard time! In this world, even if you can turn the world upside down, but... Who can take time? Xiao Jing''s eyes turned red, but he didn''t know whether it was because of sadness or anger. He looked at the messy lunch box, but gradually clenched his hand. If he was sent to chenshao by boss long for the first time, chenshao was surprised to see such a person like mud Well, now it hurts to see such a Chen who clearly controls everything but can''t do anything. "Chen Shao..." At the right time, Susan came in again. She first frowned and looked at Xiao Jing, and then said solemnly, "the shareholders require that a shareholders'' meeting be held in five days! In addition..." She stopped talking. Gu Beichen''s sadness in the depths of Mo Tong hasn''t dissipated yet. He just looks at Susan slowly. Susan clenched her hand and gritted her teeth. "The 3% shares we wanted to acquire jointly with Yadong bank failed..." "What do you mean?" Xiao Jing asked in surprise before Gu Beichen spoke. Susan''s face was dignified. "3% of the shares were not acquired successfully. At present, I don''t know whether it is the second master or the mysterious shareholder who hasn''t appeared." Now the emperor''s share price has been raised to a staggering extent, but even in this case, because it involves the emperor''s future... Some people still want to muddy the water. Gu Beichen slowly lay back on the sofa. There was no half expression on his cold, carved face, as if... He had expected it. ¡­¡­ Jane Mo didn''t know how long she had been crying on the stairs. When her mood calmed down a little, the sunset had shifted and disappeared at the west end of rows of high-rise buildings. She didn''t take the elevator, so she went down the stairs one floor after another... All the actions mechanically made her numb and numb to forget her fatigue. Sitting in the car, Jane Mo didn''t start the car. She just looked through the windshield at the crowded road ahead because of the crowd from work, and gradually lost her mind. She was suddenly at a loss. She didn''t know if she could make it In order to force her to leave, ah Chen, a man who didn''t cheat even in the original contract marriage... Now Jane Mo didn''t dare to think about it. Her heart was about to explode. Lying back on the seat, Jane''s red eyes looked at the front At the right time, the mobile phone rings. Jane Mo didn''t move. Anyway, it wouldn''t be Gu Beichen, as if... There was no expectation. Obviously, the other party didn''t mean to hang up at all. After ringing once, the unwilling one played again Jane Mo took it out. When she saw that it was a strange number, she frowned slightly and picked it up, "Hello!" The other party was silent first, and then asked, "let''s meet?" Jane Mo sat up, "Shen Chu?" "Otherwise?" Shen Chu raised his eyebrows and asked, with a trace of pride in his voice. "What''s up?" Jane Mo''s tone became bad. "Why, does it sound unhappy?" Shen Chu chuckled, "but also, who knows that his husband can be happy after going to bed with other women?" Jane Mo listened, gritting her teeth and hissing coldly, "Shen Chu, you are also a person in the rich circle... Why, do you believe such gossip?" "Naturally don''t believe..." the laughter in Shen Chu''s tone was obviously a little more, "just, I heard you just came to Beichen office?" "What do you mean?" Jane Mo immediately held her breath and asked. Chapter 462 "What do you mean you''re so smart... Don''t understand?" Shen Chu didn''t answer directly either. He just lost his rhetorical question and went back. Jane Mo''s breath is getting a little heavy, but she''s not a person to be played with and deceived Others don''t know. She knows very well... Everything Gu Beichen does is to force her to return to Zixiao. Even if acting, it should be Lu man! Acting? Lu man Suddenly, Jane Mo was stunned If Lu man is the person in the office just now, as an actor, or an actor who has won several films... Even if it is a bed play, it should not be bad? But... Is it Lu man? "Shen Chu," Jane Mo pressed down the question in her mind, "what do you want to say, just say..." "Are you still downstairs?" Shen Chu didn''t answer the question. Jane Mo frowned. Shen Chu laughed, "I see your car..." Jian Mo subconsciously looked back... Because of the light, she didn''t see Shen Chu. After a while, the co pilot''s door was suddenly opened... Shen Chu sat up. Jane Mo was disgusted for a while, but soon hung up the phone... She still has the dignity she should have. "Cried?" Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo''s reddish eyes and had an indescribable irony on his face. Jane Mo frowned. "Don''t you think you''re impolite? After all, we don''t seem to know each other very well..." "Yes!" Jane couldn''t lean back on her seat. Jian Mo''s eyes suddenly stagnated, and he saw the dazzling red mark on Shen Chu''s neck under the light from the outside. Clenched his hand, Jane Mo closed her eyes and opened it with a deep breath. "I see. You can say something directly... Beat around the bush. It really doesn''t suit you." "Jian Mo, if I were you, I would automatically quit now..." Shen Chu said, looking at Jian Mo, "the person who was just in the office is me... I''m not afraid you know." Jane Mo''s heart has begun to suffocate, but her face is still calm. "What do you want to say? Or... What do you want to express with me?" Shen Chu was slightly stunned. Obviously, he didn''t expect Jian Mo to ask her like this, "I want to say that the woman in Gu Beichen''s lounge is me. What have we just done? I don''t think I need to describe it?" "You mean..." Jane Mo smiled. "You''re telling me that you''ve become a junior between me and ah Chen, and you''re even willing to climb into someone else''s husband''s bed for some purpose?" Shen Chu immediately changed her face. For "little three", it is the most unbearable word for her recently. "Jane Mo," Shen Chu sneered, "everything is two-sided. Don''t you understand?" She sneered, "even if I want to climb, I want that man to let me climb, don''t I?" Jane Mo''s heart has contracted beyond measure... Why is it her? Why Shen Chu? Even Lu man seems to understand his intentions, but... What if the woman at that time was Shen Chu? But if it''s not Shen Chu, what does the kiss mark in her neck mean? The most important thing is, if it''s not Shen Chu... How does she know what''s going on in ah Chen''s office? Jane Mo''s heart has convulsed so that she can''t breathe, but even so, there''s nothing on her face "That''s true..." Jane Mo sneered. "One person takes out a gun, and the other person has to be willing to suffer." She smiled. "I just don''t know if Miss Shen''s Duan position is the same as those people who play in ah Chen''s daily life?" "What do you mean?" Shen Chu frowned. "It means..." Jane Mo PI pulled the corners of her mouth with a smile. "I caught ah Chen holding two hostesses on heaven night last night!" Shua, Shen Chu''s face suddenly became ugly. "Please get out of the car..." Jian Mo smiled coldly. "If you really want to tear it up, I''m afraid it''s you... After all, I''m the granddaughter-in-law recognized by my grandmother and the other half of ah Chen''s marriage certificate." She glanced at Shen Chu. "Also, don''t think you can really go down with ah Chen when you get into bed..." she sneered, "who laughs last, not necessarily!" "Jane Mo, let''s see... Who laughs last." Shen Chu snorted coldly, and his anger didn''t dissipate. "Five days later, the emperor will hold a shareholders'' meeting. This time, the emperor will rewrite it. I want to see how long you can be with him." Then, Shen Chu sneered, turned around, opened the door, got off and went to his car. Jane Mo didn''t move, but moved her sight with Shen Chu''s figure What did she just mean? Jane Mo doesn''t understand, but for the operation of the emperor, she still firmly believes in Gu Beichen''s ability. Looking at the blue logo of emperor group, Jane Mo bit her teeth and called Gu Beichen. After two rings, the phone was hung up. Jane Mo called again reluctantly... This time, she simply didn''t answer the phone. Self mockery spread through the corners of her mouth, and Jane Mo sent a text message uncontrollably dense with water mist: you just need to tell me, was the woman Shen Chu at that time? Gu Beichen looked at the message and frowned slightly. Deep in the eagle''s eyes, there was a sad sadness gradually overflowing. He knew that Shen chugang had just got into her car Just because I know, I''m not curious about Jane Mo''s SMS at the moment... If she thinks so, it''s good. President Gu: Yes! A word, like a knife, poked into Jian Mo''s heart. Her fingers trembled as she wrote: why her? Gu Beichen, even if you force me, will you hurt me like this? My heart is also made of flesh and blood, not solid steel. Gu Beichen closed his eyes painfully. He didn''t reply again He was afraid, afraid to blurt it out. Since you know it''s acting, why don''t you leave? "Mo''er, what do you want me to do so that you won''t be stubborn?" Gu Beichen''s painful voice echoed in the dark office, "can you go to Zixiao first?" I believe in your love for me, don''t you want to be wronged? Beichen closed his eyes Jane Mo''s stubbornness is his favorite character, but now, her stubbornness doesn''t allow her to bow her head and give up... What should I do to let Mo''er leave temporarily? Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes and dragged his tired body to the window Stars dot the ink sky, but they don''t shine on the dark heart at the moment. Jane Mo put her hand on the door handle and wanted to go upstairs... But she stopped before she opened the door. She has been following ah Chen''s script uncontrollably... She must calm down, she must calm down. The mobile phone rings again. Although Jian Mo knows in her heart that it can''t be Gu Beichen, she still looks forward to it Seeing Chu Zixiao, she bit her teeth and looked forward to it inexplicably. Quickly pick up, "Zixiao..." Jian Mo''s breathing becomes urgent. She urgently hopes that Chu Zixiao will suddenly change her mind and want to give her the medicine... Even if she thinks it''s very unlikely! Chapter 463 Feeling the expectation in Jian Mo''s voice, Chu Zixiao looked out of the window and became familiar with it. "Just received the notice..." Chu Zixiao''s voice showed indifference. "Five days later, the emperor''s shareholders'' meeting will be held." Jian Mo''s heart suddenly fell to the bottom, "then do you want to tell me that if I don''t agree to return to you, your shares won''t support ah Chen?" Yes, but it''s obviously certain. Jane Mo''s heart cooled half in an instant, "Zixiao, do you have to force me to be desperate, so you''re happy?" Chu Zixiao laughed at himself and said coldly, "if... You think so, that''s good!" "Chu, Zi, Xiao..." Jian Mo shouted with gnashing teeth. "Mo Mo, since the end is decided, when will you struggle?" Chu Zixiao''s more and more indifferent voice came, "your stubbornness will only make me step by step..." he slowly said the second half of the sentence because his temples moved slightly with forbearance, "... Drive Beichen to a dead end!" Jian Mo lay on the car seat weakly, looking forward with empty eyes and no focal length... The light of the street lamp gradually dissipated. Ah Chen forced her, Zi Xiao forced her It seems that the whole world is forcing her. She just fell in love with a man named Gu Beichen, but the whole world didn''t like it Painfully closed her dry eyes, and Jian Mo trusted each other. "Zixiao, you have to make me hate you, don''t you?" "Hate or..." Chu Zixiao''s voice still came calmly, "at least, it''s better than turning a blind eye, isn''t it?" "I won''t go to you and I won''t leave ah Chen..." Jian Mo''s voice became calm. "It''s good to die, he has nothing... At least, I can die in his arms, at least, he has me!" Without saying anything more, Jane Mo calmly hung up the phone. Ah Chen wanted her to live, so he forced her to go to Zixiao However, it was a betrayal of love, and she couldn''t accept it! The car is driving on the neon night streets of Los Angeles From beginning to end, Jane Mo didn''t know that a car had been following her nearby and reported her whereabouts to Gu Beichen as quickly as possible. Because of this, Lu man appeared in Gu Beichen''s lounge. Back to the villa, because there was no gu Beichen in such a big place, even the air was lonely. Jane Mo''s foot just stepped into the villa, and her mobile phone rang again. Without any hope, he took out his mobile phone and saw that it was called by Jian Heng. Jian Mo didn''t think about it. He directly cut it off... Stalled and simply shut down the machine. She could think of anything Jane Chang wanted to say with her toes. Everyone is forcing her. The only thing she can do is not to force herself to compromise ¡­¡­ Jian Jie''s arms folded on the windowsill, his chin on it, his dark eyes looking at the twinkling stars in the ink sky, and the little Zhengtai''s face was sad. At this stage, he can only trust daddy and don''t let mommy know that he already knows. Mommy is fighting alone now. I don''t know whether to cheer up or not? Jian Jie slapped his eyelashes, left his small mouth and sighed "Mommy says she''s an immortal Xiaoqiang..." Jane Jie muttered, "should it be ok?" Jane Jie straightened up, climbed into the bed with a small mouth and covered the quilt... So she lost her mind looking at the ceiling with a little starlight. How do you feel that there are so many things after Mommy returns home? I knew it would be better to stay abroad... I feel that there won''t be so many things apart from uncle? Jian Jie''s small mouth curled and his dissatisfied little nose hummed Daddy has caused a lot of things to Mommy, bad comments! Jian Jie snorted angrily and closed his eyes... But in a flash, he opened them again. But... He still likes daddy. What should I do? The tangled Jane Jie is bitter and worried about Mommy... But she likes daddy again. Compared with the simple entanglement of Jian Jie, the adult world is always full of entanglements under interests. Gu mohuai and Jian Chang sit in the box of the emperor club and look at the night view of Los Angeles through the window. It''s obviously much easier "Gu Beichen''s behavior seems strange these days?" Jane truss asked with a slight frown. Gu mohuai took back his sight and smiled gloomily at the corners of his mouth. "If there''s nothing wrong... It''s probably related to the last time Chu Zixiao came to you." "Is Xiaomo drugged?" Jane truss questions. "Almost." Gu mohuai attached himself, picked up the red wine glass, shook it gently and drank, "no matter who did it... I think there should be medicine around Chu Zixiao." Jane stringer smiled, "Xiaomo didn''t expect to make several men die hard on her like this..." "This is a good opportunity!" Gu mohuai said slowly, "with the convening of the shareholders'' meeting and the blessing of Jian Mo, if there is no accident... Snipes and mussels compete, we will benefit." "Xiaomo''s character is very stubborn..." Jane truss frowned, "it may not work." Gu silently smiled. He put down his glass. "If necessary, just help her." "What does second uncle mean?" Jane truss looked at Gu muhuai puzzled. Gu mohuai just smiled but didn''t speak. Jane truss didn''t ask much. In the past two years, he found out a little bit of his temper This person is gloomy and powerful. He will naturally say what he wants to say and what he doesn''t want to say. No matter what angle you cut in from, he can''t talk. Gu Mo got up, walked to the window, put his hand on the windowsill at will, and said with a smile in his mouth, "Jane truss, you should learn and see more when you are in trouble... If you want to stand high, you sometimes have to put away all your emotions, including bathing and looking!" The truss answered. Gu mohuai looked back at Jian Heng. "Rights and interests are double-edged swords. If you want to hold them soberly... The first thing is unfeeling!" Jane truss''s heart suddenly "clattered", the corners of his mouth moved and hung his eyes. Looking at him like this, Gu murhuai''s eyes were deep and didn''t say anything again. The next day, the sun was still shining. Jane was dizzy when she froze "Grandma, breakfast is ready!" Aunt Luo said with a smile when she saw her coming downstairs. Jian Mo smiled and nodded, subconsciously looking at Gu Beichen''s seat on weekdays The sun shines there, empty and chilling. Aunt Luo sighed and said nothing to continue her business. On the spacious dining table, Jane Mo was alone in the morning light. Even so, she still smiled and ate breakfast, as if Gu Beichen had gone abroad or gone abroad... She reported her "itinerary" by text message. When Gu Beichen received Jian Mo''s message, the car had just arrived at the company''s underground parking lot. Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen, who was pretending to sleep. He didn''t speak, but just waited. After a while, Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes... The fatigue on his face seemed to dissipate in an instant. Get out of the car, walk to the elevator with great strides, take out the mobile phone and cut open the text message. At the same time, he said indifferently: "inform the regional administrative director of Europe and America, and have a meeting in half an hour." Chapter 464 At the same time, Gu Beichen has finished reading Jian Mo''s message, calmly stepped into the elevator, received his mobile phone and stood there with one hand. The elevator climbed layer by layer, and the smooth elevator wall reflected the figure of him and Xiao Jing. Their faces were so calm. When the elevator door opened, Gu Beichen stepped out of the elevator indifferently. Xiao Jing returns to his office to inform the meeting. Susan follows Gu Beichen into the office with the folder. "This is the information sorted out..." Susan put it on her desk. "At present, only 46% of the shares can be sure!" Gu Beichen knew that if he could get 5% of Zixiao''s hand, he didn''t need to worry about his second uncle and mysterious shareholder. The problem is... While this 5% has become the biggest variable, the mysterious man already has a 6% stake. "Ask your second aunt to have dinner at night!" Gu Beichen spoke indifferently. Susan opened her mouth, paused and answered, "okay!" "Make me a cup of coffee." Gu Beichen explained. Susan sighed heavily, nodded and left the office. After Gu Beichen was busy during the day, he stood by Jian Mo''s bed like a fool at night and watched her sleep uneasily... In the morning, before she woke up, she left. At most, you can only take a nap on the way to the company I don''t know whether he is happy or unhappy. He is familiar with this woman. How long she will fall asleep after going to bed, and even when she will wake up in the morning, he has been familiar with nature. In the imperial building, all senior executives were in full readiness, and the atmosphere seemed to become dignified all of a sudden. For today''s imperial personnel, whether at the high level or at the grass-roots level, at least more than 90% of people are unwilling to replace the emperor. Although Gu Beichen works coldly and ruthlessly, it can be seen that people make good use of it, but it is the most powerful. It''s a blessing for any employee to have a boss who appreciates his ability. ¡­¡­ Grandma Gu sat on the sofa and watched the financial news report about the Emperor Since the shareholders'' meeting broke out, speculation about the emperor has fluctuated for three consecutive days. "Old lady, have some water?" Aunt LAN came over with a tray, on which were placed English patterned kettles and cups. Grandma Gu sighed, took the remote control and turned off the TV. "Sit down and chat with me?" Grandma Gu said calmly. Aunt LAN nodded with a smile and poured water for each other. "Alan, how many days are there?" Grandma Gu asked. Aunt LAN knew that grandma Gu was asking about Jane Mo, and thought a little, "about three or four days?" "Xiaomo doesn''t compromise yet?" Grandma Gu asked. Aunt LAN smiled at the corners of her mouth and really admired her sadness. "Yes, it''s still consuming!" "Worthy of Beichen''s fancy..." grandma Gu drank and said with a smile, "Xiaomo''s appearance is impeccable, which is due to her inner tenacity and indomitability." "You used to be very much like the old lady..." aunt Lan said with emotion. Grandma Gu sighed, "it''s a pity that she met a man who was very kind to herself, but she couldn''t live her life smoothly like me." "The days of Chen Shao and Mrs. Shao are still long. Why is the old lady pessimistic?" Aunt LAN doesn''t know whether to comfort herself or take care of grandma''s heart. Grandma Gu sighed deeply, and the corners of her drooping eyelids said sadly, "tell Mo Huai to come back for dinner in the evening!" "The old lady is..." aunt LAN frowned suspiciously and stopped talking. "After all, I''m still afraid..." grandma Gu laughed at herself. "No better than when I was young... Now, I''m afraid of the future." Aunt LAN sighed, "I hope the second master can understand your pains." Grandma Gu didn''t speak any more. She just drank water with a cup. Beichen doesn''t say anything, and she doesn''t know anything After listening to Yunze''s story about Xiaomo, she felt that the family had planted evil consequences since she put her mind on the army and didn''t put it at home. Whether it''s between Zixiao and Xiaomo, or Beichen and Xiaomo... There''s nothing wrong. It is only when there are three people who are wrong that they should recover. When you''re alone, you can''t say it''s a mistake The sun has not seen Gu Beichen in Jianmo for five days, and the emperor has moved westward gradually three days after the news of the shareholders'' meeting again The passage of time, people want to slow it down, there is nothing they can do. Gu mohuai parked in the parking space of the villa, first looked at the direction of the villa, and finally fell under the sunshade next to the swimming pool. Get out of the car, walk over and sit down opposite grandma Gu. "Mom..." Gu murhuai shouted calmly. Grandma Gu put down her book, took off her reading glasses, looked at her calm face and nodded. "I asked Alan to prepare your favorite..." grandma Gu said, "just eat here?" "Good!" Grandma Gu motioned to Aunt LAN. Aunt LAN nodded and ordered the servant to prepare. "How did mom think of calling me today?" Gu mohuai asked after opening. "There will be a shareholders'' meeting the day after tomorrow?" Grandma Gu asked knowingly. "Yes." Gu muhuai answered, "Mom, is it for this?" "Yes!" Grandma Gu took a sip of tea. Gu mohuai smiled at the corners of his mouth. "Does mom want to persuade me to stop?" "If I persuade you, will you stop?" Grandma Gu didn''t answer the question. "No!" Gu mohuai said seriously. "So, I won''t persuade..." grandma Gu put down her tea cup. "Mo Huai, why do you hate Gu''s family so much?" She looked at Gu mohuai. "I can''t figure it out... Even when you and Mo yuan were young, most of our thoughts were on you. What caused you to alienate your family?" Gu Mo Huai lowered his eyes, and the smile at the corners of his mouth remained there, never spreading. Grandma Gu was not in a hurry, so she waited. I don''t know how long it took... Gu mohuai raised his eyes when the afterglow of the sunset remained in the West and looked incomplete and lonely. "There''s one thing I''ve always wanted to ask..." Gu muhuai looked at grandma Gu with a dark vision. "You ask!" "I have my own parents... Who is it?" he said Grandma Gu frowned slightly, "do you know?" "Yes, I know... And I know it very early!" Gu mohuai''s voice was very calm. "Your estrangement from your family is because we are not your biological parents?" Gu grandma is a person who has gone through the great wind and waves, and she shows great peace. "A biological mother is not as big as an adoptive mother... I still understand that." Gu mohuai''s eyes are already dark. "Just... I want to know why my parents... Died? Why did you adopt me..." his tone became gloomy. "Mom, can you tell me?" Chapter 465 Grandma Gu''s eyes narrowed slightly after precipitating the years. After a sharp light, it was calm in an instant. Gu mohuai knew what to talk about today when he received a call from Grandma Gu Grandma Gu has been ignoring Gu''s family affairs for a long time... Or since Gu Beichen''s kidnapping, she doesn''t care much. She has only one belief, which makes the grandson who has lost the direction of life rekindle his fighting spirit. And that fighting spirit... Is built by him and Gu Moyuan. Many things have two sides, good and bad. "Can you tell me how you know these things first?" Grandma Gu asked. Gu mohuai lowered his eyes. "How do you know? It doesn''t matter anymore..." he raised his eyes. "I just want to know the truth of what happened that year." Grandma Gu frowned, "that''s a long time ago..." "No matter how long it takes, I have the right to know!" Gu mohuai never retreated. "Silent..." grandma Gu frowned. "People, sometimes you have to learn to let go of yourself... Why do you have to be persistent?" Gu muhuai smiled and laughed arrogantly, "am I persistent?" He asked, "am I persistent, or don''t you want me to know the truth?" "Seriously... I really don''t want you to know the truth!" Grandma Gu said with a deep sigh. She doesn''t want the actions of his biological parents to become an unforgettable stain in his life "Of course you don''t want me to know..." Gu Mo''s smile gradually converged, "because... You can have a later position by climbing on my parents'' shoulders!" Grandma Gu frowned when she heard this, "who did you listen to?" "I said, who said it doesn''t matter... What matters is the truth!" Gu mohuai gritted his teeth. "You have always been a loving father and strict mother in front of me, and I... Have called you all your life!" When did you say, "yes, I''ll always laugh when I''m ready to go!" Grandma Gu didn''t speak, but just looked at Gu silently, with a gradually overflowing disappointment in her eyes. "In that case, you can take it to the coffin..." Gu Mo sneered. "You will break up my original family, and I will break up my family... The same! No one will take advantage of it, and no one will suffer." "I don''t know who told you this..." grandma Gu said calmly, "but I''ve been in the army all my life and have done well... I''m not afraid of others. I don''t need anyone to step on." Grandma Gu looked awe inspiring. "Since the accident in Beichen, I have guessed that you probably know that you are not our own... You can see that I don''t care about all your means to make Beichen stand up again." "Yes, I know..." Gu Mo sneered. "Isn''t this your usual means?" Grandma Gu didn''t change her face, but said, "but I never thought that you were not smoked by interests, but blinded by hatred..." "Are you going to argue?" Gu muhuai smiled. "Say my mother degenerated after being with drug lords, or does my father set up an underground execution ground and waste human life?" Grandma Gu still changed her face, "silent..." "In fact, you don''t have to say anything. I know it very well!" Gu muhuai smiled again, but this time it was a Yin evil smile, "I''ve been thinking, to what extent will you come to me to talk about it?" Grandma Gu''s breath is a little unstable "I think this is your last chance... You," Gu mohuai narrowed his eyes slightly, "really didn''t disappoint me." His face became sullen and said with a sneer, "in the end, for your grandson, you didn''t forget to slander my parents at last... Haven''t you had nightmares? Haven''t you ever felt guilty when you framed my parents to a high position?" Grandma Gu covered her chest. Her pupils spread a little. She gritted her teeth and said, "I came to you today. It''s not... It''s not about... Talking about this..." "You''re not sure. Do I know the truth?" Gu muhuai stared at his angry eyes, "I will show you that I will disintegrate my family step by step... You owe me all this!" After talking, he didn''t seem to see that grandma Gu''s face began to look bad, and even his breathing became short. "I came here today... To tell you this two days before the shareholders'' meeting in order to repay your upbringing!" Gu mohuai sneered, "you are unkind to my parents. I''ll always leave some way for you... In two days, I''ll give you and Gu Beichen a chance to turn over the clouds and rain." Gu Mo got up and said, "I won''t eat dinner... Mother kindness and filial piety are really not suitable for us!" Grandma Gu breathed more and more. Looking at Gu mohuai who turned and left, she gritted her teeth and said, "I just know... You... You''re wrong... Um..." "Old lady..." aunt LAN just came out of the villa and saw grandma Gu''s breath didn''t come up at once. She hurried forward, "old lady, old lady..." Gu muhuai heard the urgent cry behind him, stopped and looked back Grandma Gu turned pale and left with a sneer because she couldn''t get up in one breath. "Come on, come on..." aunt Lan''s voice came from behind, "call doctor Fang to come quickly..." Gu mohuai got into the car and blocked all the panic. Looking sideways, grandma Gu had closed her eyes and lay back in the chair. He snorted coldly, started the car... And left. ''pedal pedal pedal'' footsteps came with panic Jane Mo panted and ran to the emergency room. Looking at the light that was still on, she looked anxiously at Aunt LAN. "Why did grandma suddenly enter the hospital?" Aunt Lan said with a bitter face and slightly red eyes, "I don''t know yet?" Jian Mo came in a hurry and swallowed out of breath. Seeing aunt Lan''s worried and self reproached face, she didn''t ask, "grandma is usually in good health and will be fine..." "Yes!" Aunt LAN nodded sadly, "how does Mrs. Shao know?" She was a little confused. Jane Mozhe pulled off the corners of her lips, some self mockingly. "When I called, Dr. Fang had just arrived in the middle of the mountain..." As soon as aunt LAN heard this, she hurriedly asked, "young lady, you..." "I''m fine!" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and shook her head, with a strange emotion flashing in the depths of her eyes. "Nothing..." As soon as aunt LAN spoke, she heard the hurried footsteps in the corridor. She and Jian Mo subconsciously looked... Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing came with anxious big steps. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen, and her sight blurred in an instant This is the first time she saw him in so many days since he wanted to force her away! Chapter 466 When Gu Beichen saw Jian Mo, he was obviously stunned After receiving the news of grandma''s admission, he rushed over at the first time and told her not to tell her? Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen with red eyes, but in a moment, Gu Beichen moved his eyes, looked at Aunt LAN and asked, "why did grandma suddenly do this?" Aunt LAN subconsciously looked at Jian Mo and said solemnly, "the old lady may have been stimulated..." The ambiguous words made Jane MO realize that Aunt LAN didn''t want to know. She pulled the corners of her mouth and suddenly felt a little embarrassed. She cares about her grandmother, and the person around her is her husband... The atmosphere at the moment will embarrass her? The corners of her mouth pulled, and Jane Mo retreated silently without saying anything I didn''t go far. While keeping a distance, I can pay attention to grandma Gu''s situation. Aunt Lan was also a little embarrassed. She looked at Jian Mo in the distance and just lowered her voice and said, "the old lady asked the second master to come back for dinner. I''ll arrange the kitchen and come out like this..." Gu Beichen immediately knew that Mo Tong didn''t know the bottom, "grandma asked second uncle to talk about the shareholders'' meeting?" "It should be about this," aunt LAN is not very sure, "or maybe something else." She is the one who takes care of the old lady. She knows the old lady''s temperament. It''s impossible to say that the shareholders'' meeting is like this Gu Beichen''s cold face was already dark. His eagle eyes were slightly cold. "When grandma was uncomfortable, the second uncle left?" Aunt LAN shook her head. Gu Beichen narrowed his eyes slightly and didn''t ask anything again. Jane Mo has been looking at Gu Beichen, but she hasn''t seen him for six or seven days, but she seems to have not seen him for a long time. Has he thought about her these days? She thinks about him crazily every day. What about him? Jane Mo clenched her hand and tried to press down the humble sadness. Xu is that her eyes are too hot. Gu Beichen looked at her after a long time. But just one glance, he took back his eyes... The indifference made Jane Mo almost unable to hold on. Even if she knew he was intentional and pretended... She couldn''t comfort herself. After about an hour, the door of the emergency room opened and the doctor came out. Jane Mo couldn''t care to immerse herself in Gu Beichen''s sadness and hurried over "Doctor, how''s my grandmother?" Gu Beichen asked. "Mrs. Gu is old and stimulated by the outside world..." the doctor''s face was dignified. "I''m fine now, but I''m afraid in the future..." he stopped again. Gu Beichen frowned and his voice was slightly heavy. "What are you afraid of?" "I''m afraid I''ll spend it in the hospital bed..." the doctor sighed deeply. Grandma Gu was in her 80s. She couldn''t stand the stimulation. She was not happy for a moment, so she naturally fell down. Gu Beichen closed his eyes and opened them. "Are you awake?" "Not yet..." said the doctor. "There''s no accident. I should be able to wake up at night." Gu Beichen nodded and motioned Xiao Jing to go through the formalities. After Li Yunze came to the hospital, he knew that grandma Gu was hospitalized. He went to the ward without changing his doctor''s robe. When I got to the door, I felt a dignified and repressive atmosphere coming to my face. Open the door "Beichen, grandma how..." Li Yunze looked at the two people in confrontation, and the rest of the words spilled out a little numbly, "... What''s the matter?" Jane Mo smiled at her lower lip and looked at Li Yunze. Gu Beichen also coldly converged his eyes, "it''s a little tricky." Faint words overflow the thin lips, making people unable to hear the joys and sorrows. Jane Mo lowered her eyes, bit her teeth, looked at Li Yunze and said, "Yunze, please look after grandma and check her again by the way..." "Oh..." Li Yunze answered subconsciously. Before he really reacted, he saw that Jian Mo couldn''t move forward. As soon as he grabbed Gu Beichen''s wrist, he wanted to go out. Li Yunze opened his mouth slightly in surprise. Gu Beichen frowned at the sword eyebrow, and his wrist was pulled back slightly. Jian Mo didn''t pull it. Looking back, Jane Mo gritted her teeth and said, "Gu Beichen, escape... Should not appear on you or me." Li Yunze swallowed secretly and wanted to applaud Jian mo... Unfortunately, it was not his job to stab his brother in the heart. "Indeed." Gu Beichen said in a cold voice, "so you shouldn''t escape your physical condition." "..." Jane morwei was stunned and had no face for herself even if she set herself up at this time. "Am I avoiding my physical condition, or do you avoid seeing me?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "Grandma is like this today..." her nose was sour and astringent. "There are also reasons for me and you?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but frowned slightly. Jane Mo knows what Gu Beichen is bearing at the moment, but he has already whitewashed everything with his indifferent appearance. Li Yunze was a little embarrassed, "I think... You two are like this, which affects me to show grandma..." Then he looked at Gu Beichen and motioned in his eyes. Jane Mo glanced at Li Yunze and said nothing more, so she wanted to take Gu Beichen away. But there is no action yet. Gu Beichen has turned away from the guest. While his wrist overturned, his big palm wrapped Jian Mo''s small hand and walked out with big steps When the talent left the ward, he saw Xiao Jing grinning. At the same time, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo''s eyes had fallen on Chu Zixiao who had just walked out of the elevator. Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen calmly, and then his sight crossed Jian Mo and fell on the hands held by the two people He looked quietly for a few seconds, then raised his eyes and walked forward... But without saying anything, he calmly wiped Jian Mo''s side and turned into the ward. There is nothing to say, and there is nothing to say now. Xiao Jing sighed secretly and looked dignified. Gu Beichen kept on walking with Jian Mo without changing his face Jian Mo was silently pulled by him and went up to the roof. As the leading private hospital in China, Huakang hospital is first-class in terms of environment and facilities Standing on the rooftop, overlooking the panoramic view of the hospital, it''s like being in a park. They were silent for a while. Finally, Gu Beichen narrowed his eagle eyes and asked, "what did you ask Dr. Fang to do?" "Will you still care about me?" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s proud back and asked. Gu Beichen''s thin lips tightened into a line and endured it. He turned slowly and looked at Jian mo. in his voice, he said solemnly, "Mo''er... There''s no time!" Ten days, there are three days left... And no one knows what will happen in these three days. Jane Mo stared at Gu Beichen''s sight tightly, clenched her hand, bit her teeth and said, "ah Chen... I''m pregnant!" Chapter 467 Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gathered for a moment. Mo Tong looked at Jian Mo and couldn''t respond for a long time. He stared at her like this, as if digesting the words "I''m pregnant". "You..." Gu Beichen hesitated. "What are you talking about?" Jane Mo bit her teeth and slightly picked her chin. "I haven''t come for my period. It''s been a long time... And I''m disgusted! So I called Dr. Fang to the villa..." Gu Beichen''s eyes were already deep and bottomless. At the deepest place, there was a whirlpool of wind and waves slowly exploding out. The breath began to be unstable, and Gu Beichen''s hand was not clenched by himself Because of the situation, now is not the most suitable opportunity to have children... So every time he is with Mo''er, he is very careful. However, there are mistakes Now the child shouldn''t come, even because Mo''er''s body and medicine "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen''s voice trembled uncontrollably. He always had self-control, as if he had also stood on the edge of collapse. Jane Mo stared. "Don''t tell me that this child can''t have it... I won''t take it off before I check whether my body has any effect on the child!" Firm eyes are stubborn. The highest level of lies is... Deceive yourself first! When you believe a lie, even if you face someone who can see through you, there is no flaw! Gu Beichen''s breathing is a little messy. He seems to be calm all the time. He suddenly doesn''t know how to face such an emergency "Then you should go to Zixiao..." Finally, Gu Beichen said this sentence powerlessly, taking time out of the decadence of his soul. Look at Beichen, don''t believe you "If you want to give birth to this child, first..." Gu Beichen gritted his teeth. "You want to live!" "..." Jane Mo''s eyelashes trembled slightly, and she couldn''t help but roar with a sour nose, "ah Chen, can you use everything to force me to go to Zixiao? Isn''t it?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and squeezed the words out of his teeth, "I must let you live..." "Then I''ll die and show you..." Jian Mo suddenly roared wildly, "I''d rather die. You''re in pain or I''m not responsible... But I just don''t want to go to Zixiao!" The red eyes and dense mist have blurred the eyes. "That''s your nephew... I don''t care if I''m criticized," she choked. "But how do people outside look at you?" Gu Beichen''s heart has been suffocated and can''t breathe. They are thinking about each other... What''s the purpose of such pain and suffering? "Mo''er..." "Gu Beichen, I hate you!" Jian Mo gritted his teeth and stared, interrupting Gu Beichen''s words, "in order to force me, you don''t even want to give me warmth in the last few days..." Sucking her nose, Jane Mo bit her lower lip and turned without saying anything. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo straightly, but his back was angry, and his eyes were dead gray. Did he really just want the warmth of the last few days to let her pass in his arms? No man is willing to push his beloved woman into the arms of others That is not the definition of love and non love, but powerlessness and despair. Mo''er, these days, whether it''s boss long, Yunze or even South... There''s no way! Medicine, still can''t match Powerless close your eyes, under the sun, it seems that there is a crystal refraction light across... With powerless sadness. Opening his eyes, Gu Beichen took a step and chased down with big steps Just as Jane Mo was about to open the door of grandma Gu''s floor, Li Li grabbed her wrist at once. Jane Mo instinctively panicked, turned back and looked at the deep and bottomless sight of Shanggu Beichen. The surprise burst at the bottom of her eyes. Before Jian Mo could be happy, she was surprised by Gu Beichen''s words and fell to the bottom of the ice. "Let Yunze check it for you..." Gu Beichen''s indifferent voice came. "If not, it''s best. If there is..." he paused. "No matter what you think next, son... Take it off!" Jane Mo stared at Gu Beichen in disbelief. She just lied... She didn''t come for her period, but it doesn''t mean she''s pregnant. After all, since she gave birth to a milk bag, the time of her menstrual leave has been postponed every time... Besides, she has been unstable recently, which also accounts for a great possibility. She swallowed it secretly, and Jane Mo was a little frightened at the bottom of her eyes She''s just forcing Gu Beichen. She''s not really pregnant. Gu Beichen looked at the panic at the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes, both distressed and guilty Mo''er is not a schemer, but now all her scheming is used not to leave him... What can he do? Fingers, one by one loose, my heart has been sad, countercurrent into a river. "Pregnant, you lied to me, didn''t you?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips opened slightly and asked coldly. Jane Mo''s eyelashes trembled slightly and bit her lips. "Mo''er..." Jian Mo suddenly pressed Gu Beichen''s push against the wall, grabbed his skirt and stood on tiptoe... Lips and pasted them on his thin lips. Without any movement, she just closed her eyes Tears fell from the cracks in the eyes. "Ah Chen, if I live in this way... My life is better than death!" Jane Mo choked, "I know your plan... But I can''t do it!" Because of talking, Jian Mo''s lips kept sweeping on Gu Beichen''s lips Her breath and her sadness filled all the nerves and cells of Gu Beichen. Don''t even think about it! Gu Beichen protected Jian Mo''s back with one hand and the back of her brain with the other hand, and turned her against the wall Kiss, without any omen of deepening The entanglement of lips and tongues is like a wanton dance music. Only by constantly approaching and entanglement can we dance a flexible melody. The breath becomes thick in the empty stairwell, and the "Huhu" is expanded. "Well..." A chirping voice came. Suddenly, a sweet and fishy blood gas filled each other''s mouths Jane Mo closed her eyes sadly, and the corners of her mouth kept shaking. Gu Beichen slowly released Jian Mo''s lips and put his forehead against her forehead. The blood at the corner of his mouth was particularly dazzling, "Mo''er, let you leave... Not just because of your body." Jane Mo breathed heavily, lowered her eyes and slowly opened her eyes "There are some things you should know sooner or later." Gu Beichen''s voice was dark and hoarse. Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen. There was a loss in her black pupil. "Maybe... Letting you leave now is the most appropriate choice, you know?" Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and said, "if you leave under such circumstances, it will hurt each other the most!" Jane Mo''s heart coagulated, and her voice trembled under tension. "What do you want to say?" Chapter 468 Gu Beichen slowly raised his head and stared deeply at Jian Mo in his eyes. The thin corners of his lips were hooked with a self mockery He got up powerlessly and stepped back. "Sooner or later, you will know..." his eyes became deep, as if this was the last time to see Jian Mo, "Mo''er, maybe... As you said, I shouldn''t have provoked you at the beginning." Jane Mo''s heart began to tremble, and inexplicable panic invaded her nerves. "Maybe..." Gu Beichen''s voice became distant and empty. "From the beginning, we were wrong... Everything has been doomed to the end, but we have entered the irreversible cycle of life." Jane Mo became more and more flustered Even a few times ago, Gu Beichen could accept all kinds of reasons for forcing her to leave... But now, she just got nervous uncontrollably. "What the hell are you trying to say?" Jane swallowed with difficulty. Gu Beichen stepped back feebly. There was a faint sting pain in the corner of his mouth where the skin was broken because of the just too hot kiss. "Mo''er, love yourself well..." Gu Beichen said slowly, "that''s your greatest love for me." Then he stared at Jian Mo deeply, opened the door of the corridor without saying anything, and left with a big step. The soft sound of ''Bang'' came Jane Mo turned her face numbly, and her eyes fell on the door that opened and closed slightly, and her eyes became empty. What did he just mean? Why... She doesn''t understand? The mechanical fan moved his eyelashes and saw that the door of the corridor was pushed open again. A flash of light flashed across the fundus of Jian Mo''s eyes, but in a flash, when she saw that it was Chu Zixiao, it became dim. Chu Zixiao''s hand was still on the doorknob, so he was in line with Jian Mo''s line of sight. Slightly drooping his eyes, he glanced at the dried blood at the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth, and said, "what are you thinking about?" Jane Mo sneered, "death is not terrible..." she slowly stood up straight. "What''s terrible is that people sell their souls for compromise." The words fell, and she squeezed out of Chu Zixiao with a cold face. Chu Zixiao turned his body and looked at Jian Mo''s back, "Mo Mo, if a person dies, what else to talk about later?" "There is no one in the future..." Jian Mo suddenly turned around and stared at Chu Zixiao, "there is no need to talk at all!" He glared at Chu Zixiao fiercely, and Jian Mo wanted to turn around and leave "Mo Mo, you and Beichen are destined to be separated even if there is no such thing!" Chu Zixiao''s voice came from behind calmly. Jane Mo frowned, clenched her hand and turned around "What do you want to say?" Chu Zixiao''s eyes were slightly deep. "There is no secret that can never be found. What do I want to say?" He said softly, "will you believe what I say now?" A rhetorical question stunned Jane mo. She turned and looked at Chu Zixiao again. Subconsciously, she felt that what Chu Zixiao said was the same as Gu Beichen''s. Slightly frowned, Jian Mo hurriedly turned back and hurriedly walked to grandma Gu''s ward She doesn''t want to know. She doesn''t want to know anything. Suddenly Jian Mo only felt that the scenery in front of her was shaking falsely and her feet stumbled. She heard Chu Zixiao scream. She subconsciously held the wall aside The feeling of dizziness came slowly, and everything in front of me seemed to be drifting away. "Mo Mo..." Chu Zixiao held Jian Mo, his face full of worry. Jane Mo closed her eyes, shook her head, opened her eyes, and her body was suddenly weak. She looked at Chu Zixiao with disappointment in her eyes. She turned her arm and broke away from him... Holding the wall forward. Yes, her stubbornness is unreasonable. Better understand Gu Beichen''s thoughts If they live, they can be together. However, such a wandering between the two nephews, unbearable one... How can the life of milk bag grow towards the sun and barbarism in the future? "Beichen, you should be prepared..." Li Yunze''s voice was heavy. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, just holding grandma Gu''s hand Li Yunze was sad and couldn''t bear to see it. He bit his teeth and said with a slight movement on his temples, "Grandma''s physical condition... Is not optimistic." Gu Beichen was neither sad nor happy. His cold face was so indifferent that he didn''t seem to hear it. The atmosphere in the ward gradually solidified, depressing. Li Yunze and Gu Beichen grew up together. They are friends and brothers Everything about each other, each other knows, and because of this understanding, he loves this man who should be surrounded by stars and the moon. "Wrong from the beginning, wrong again..." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and said slowly, "some things can''t be saved." Li Yunze gritted his teeth. He suddenly looked at Gu Beichen. "Beichen, Jian Mo is also innocent." "Yes, she is innocent... All the mistakes are mine!" Li Yunze was stunned. "I didn''t mean that." Gu Beichen stopped talking, and silence returned to the ward Jane Mo stood at the door of the ward, her heart depressed almost uncontrollably. That feeling is like Grandma Gu''s today. It''s all caused by her Eyelashes kept trembling. Jane Mo hurriedly turned around and ran to the elevator. The sound of "Ding" came. Jane Mo wanted to rush in at the moment when the elevator door opened, and just hit the person who was coming out "Ah!" CEN Lanxi was almost knocked down by Jian mo. fortunately, she was quickly held by Gu Yuan. "Yo, little Jane, what''s the matter?" Gu Yuan picked up one side of the corner of her mouth with a strange voice. CEN Lanxi''s face was black. "Are you in a hurry to reincarnate?" Jane Mo looked at the people in the elevator. They were basically the family members who came to see grandma. When she lifted her lips, Jane Mo didn''t say anything, but endured it. "No education is no education..." Cen Lanxi snorted coldly, "what kind of parents teach what kind of children, no wonder Beichen is tired of you!" With a cold hum, she wanted to cross Jane and get out of the elevator. "A person who talks about other people''s parents, I don''t think that kind of upbringing is very good..." CEN Lanxi can look down on her and hate her. However, she can''t say her parents... This is Jane Mo''s bottom line. CEN Lanxi suddenly stopped. Just when everyone thought she was going to say something, they saw her raise her hand and wave it to Jian mo "Grandma!" "Pa!" Chu Zixiao shouted in surprise. At the same time, a slap had been slapped on Jian Mo''s face. The burning pain came, and Jian Mo only felt her eyes shining and spinning "Foam!" Chu Zixiao hurried to the past, held the almost fallen Jian Mo and looked at Cen Lanxi, "grandma, what are you doing?" "Look at you..." Cen Lanxi sneered. "Zixiao, don''t forget, she is still your little aunt." "Since you know that Mo Mo is the wife of your little uncle, is it her or your little uncle who slapped you?" Chu Zixiao then gritted his teeth and asked. Chapter 469 Chu Zixiao''s question stunned Cen Lanxi, "of course I hit..." "It doesn''t matter who it is..." Jian Mo grinned and interrupted Cen Lanxi''s words. After looking at her weakly, she broke away from Chu Zixiao and entered the elevator. In the sight of all kinds of thoughts, Jane Mo pressed the elevator with a calm and calm face, looked at the elevator door indifferently, and closed slowly after they withdrew. After the "bang", the number began to decline "Zixiao, I don''t care what the news outside is?" CEN Lanxi was black and calm. "Even if Beichen doesn''t want this woman, you are not allowed to entangle with her!" Chu Zixiao neither agreed nor refused. Gu Yuan sneered, "Mom, we can''t control the world of young people... Elder sister doesn''t care. What are you doing with that heart?" "Shut up!" CEN Lanxi sneered and looked at Gu Yuan and Chu Zixiao. "The day after tomorrow is the shareholders'' meeting. Anyway, one is Beichen sister and the other is nephew. I''ll weigh the shares in your hand." Gu Yuan smiled, "Mom, what you said... We must face Beichen?" CEN Lanxi seemed very satisfied with Gu Yuan''s words and looked at Chu Zixiao again, waiting for him to make a statement. "I have something else to do, let''s go first..." Chu Zixiao saw another elevator arrive, said calmly, and turned and left. CEN Lanxi frowned and Gu Yuan sneered at one corner of her mouth. "Mom, Zixiao has a good relationship with Beichen. Are you still worried about him?" "The problem is that Jane foam is disturbing the situation..." Cen Lanxi said angrily. "This woman, like her mother, specially comes to mess up my family. Hum..." Gu Yuan and her husband gave a wink, smiled and took Cen Lanxi to grandma Gu''s ward. ¡­¡­ After Jane Mo left the hospital, she drove aimlessly. When she recovered, her car had driven to the crescent Lake in the suburbs Looking sideways, I found that the main body of the villa had risen. Slightly surprised, Jane Mo got out of the car and walked over I don''t know if it''s a coincidence or something. Jian Mo just arrived near the villa, and the mobile phone rang... She took it out and found that it was Shaoshi''s. "If you''re asking about interior design drawings..." Jane Mo took the lead in saying, "there''s still a little to finish." Shi Shaoqin sat under the sunshade, his narrow Phoenix eyes slightly picked an indifferent arc, "not asking about this..." there was a shallow smile in his voice, "just want to ask you, do you have time to see the villa?" "Huh?" Jane Mo was a little stunned. Shi Shaoqin smiled. "I received a call at that time and said that the main body of the villa had risen, so I wanted you to have a look..." Something at the bottom of Jane Mo''s eyes turned into surprise and surprise. "I''ve just arrived here now..." Jane Mo''s voice was surprised. "I didn''t expect your phone to arrive." "Really?" Shi Shaoqin said softly. Jane opened the video, "see?" Shi Shaoqin looked at some haggard Jian Mo under the camera, "you''re not in good spirits?" Jane froth was stunned. She didn''t think he noticed her first. After pulling the corners of her mouth, Jane moo said, "maybe it''s not good to rest?" She lowered her eyes and asked, "are you... By the sea now?" Shi Shaoqin smiled softly, "yes, I live by the sea." Paused, "have a chance to invite you over?" "Oh, no need..." Jane Mo refused at the moment, suddenly felt a little embarrassed, and hurriedly said, "I''m afraid my husband is jealous!" Shi Shaoqin''s handsome face was filled with a smile and forked the topic, "can you show me the villa first?" "Good!" Jian Mo readily agreed, so he opened the video and took Shi Shaoqin to visit the main body of the villa. "When will you be back?" Jane Mo asked, "I''ll finish the design and send it to you in the next two days... See if you''re dissatisfied." "Don''t worry..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was soft and charming from beginning to end. "I have no time..." "Huh?" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, "what do you mean?" "No, no... what do you mean." Jane Mo suddenly reacted and quickly shook her head, "there will be other projects. It will be very busy." Shi Shaoqin looked puzzled, as if he didn''t believe it... But the gentleman didn''t continue to ask. "Take good care of yourself," Shi Shaoqin said gently. "We should strengthen our faith... Only such a life is complete." Jane morwei frowned invisibly, "why do you say that to me?" Shi Shaoqin smiled and said without explanation: "sincere invitation... I hope to have the opportunity to be a guest here." "If you have a chance..." Jane Mo politely didn''t refuse. But I''m afraid there''s no chance for this opportunity, right? After hanging up Shi Shaoqin''s phone, Jian Mo returned to the car. Just sitting on it, she felt a slight dizziness She didn''t dare to drive. She just lay back in her seat and waited for that feeling to disappear. Time is getting closer and closer. In the face of death... She doesn''t hesitate very much. It''s just that people... Can''t let go, so they are greedy. The night is blurred and neon flashes. In the law firm, there is only Li Xiaoyue''s office, where the light of the desk lamp comes from. When the knock came, Li Xiaoyue looked up and saw the figure push open the glass door and come in. She suddenly stood up. "Why are you here?" "Let''s see the progress of the case..." Jin Shuman looked at Li Xiaoyue with a sneer and slowly attached himself with wide eyes. "Li Xiaoyue, this court session... If you can''t win, I''ll tell you your scandal." Li Xiaoyue gripped her hand in an instant, clenched it, and made a ''bare bare'' sound... It can be seen how much strength she used to bear it. "Is it my scandal or Yang Ziyu''s?" "I''m afraid Li Xiaoyue will be more sympathetic," the judge said Jin Shuman smiled. "Anyway, my husband is dead... It doesn''t matter." Li Xiaoyue was angry in the end. "Yang Ziyu is dead. Since you don''t care, why do you have to win this lawsuit?" "I just don''t want you to live..." Jin Shuman smiled, and that smile made people want to tear it up. "Li Xiaoyue, because of you..." Jin Shuman said slowly, "my husband died in prison and I have been in prison for nearly five years. All this is thanks to you... You say, how can I have the heart to let you live easily?" Li Xiaoyue''s body began to tremble uncontrollably because of her forbearance. "Don''t stare at me... I''m so scared!" Jin Shuman laughed. "I really want to thank my husband for leaving me such interesting photos. Tut Tut, that figure is good!" "Jin Shuman, you''ve had enough!" Li Xiaoyue couldn''t help shouting. Jin Shuman sneered, "Li Xiaoyue, what kind of pain I suffer in prison, I will let you repay ten times or even a hundred times..." "You..." Li Xiaoyue just opened her mouth and suddenly stopped. She saw her eyes at the door and looked at Mo Shaochen. In a moment, her heart... Fell to the bottom of the valley. Chapter 470 Li Xiaoyue was frozen in place and looked at Mo Shaochen standing at the door. At that moment, her mind was empty She didn''t know how long Mo Shaochen had been standing there... Let alone whether he had heard Jin Shuman''s words just now. Suddenly, Li Xiaoyue smiled It''s good to hear that she no longer has to pretend that her life is free from stains in front of this elegant and pure man. Just, why does the heart hurt so much? Such pain is like a rope constantly strangling her heart, making her slowly feel the suffocation under death. Jin Shuman felt something wrong with Li Xiaoyue and subconsciously looked back... He was shocked to see someone. Mo Shaochen walked in indifferently. After staring at Li Xiaoyue deeply, he looked at Jin Shuman indifferently, "obstructing judicial justice and trying to threaten lawyers..." He lowered his eyes and smiled. When he raised it again, he said sharply, "do you believe these two points alone..." the smile on the corner of his mouth deepened a little, "I can send you to prison... To death?" At the same time, Mo Shaochen''s smile gradually converged, and his face was covered with a layer of frost. Jin Shuman was suddenly surprised, "who are you?" "It doesn''t matter who I am..." Mo Shaochen said indifferently. "As long as you know, what I just said... Is definitely not to scare you, just like!" The pressure of pressing people''s hearts is reflected in the low voice. The invisible breath makes people unable to breathe. Jin Shuman subconsciously swallowed, "I want you to take care of things about Li Xiaoyue and me..." she hardened her head, snorted coldly, stared at Li Xiaoyue and said, "I''m waiting for you to win this lawsuit." Then she squinted at Mo Shaochen, sneered at the corners of her mouth and left. The soft light of the desk lamp showed a large area of darkness, which pulled Mo Shaochen''s figure long. The atmosphere is a little dignified. In a quiet space, you can even hear a little dignified breathing. Li Xiaoyue mocked herself and sat down slowly. "Why did senior brother come here?" Mo Shaochen frowned slightly and invisibly, "passing by." "Oh..." Li Xiaoyue pulled the corners of her mouth hard, "well... I still have a case to deal with. I can''t accompany you..." "Have you eaten yet?" Asked Mo Shaochen. Li Xiaoyue frowned. "I''m collecting data." "I miss that noodle stall a little..." Mo Shaochen continued, "together?" It seems that the two people''s dialogue is not on the same frequency, and they say their own. With a "pop", Li Xiaoyue slapped the pen in her hand on the table and stood up. "Mo Shaochen, can''t you understand what I''m saying?" Li Xiaoyue growled anxiously. Mo Shaochen looked at her and smiled. "I just didn''t eat at night and don''t want to eat alone. I want to go together when I pass by..." he completely ignored Li Xiaoyue''s anger. "No matter how busy the case is, I always have to eat... You said." Li Xiaoyue was stunned there and watched Mo Shaochen gradually blush in her eyes She didn''t say anything, but she felt strongly... Mo Shaochen just heard what Jin Shuman said. "Elder martial brother..." Li Xiaoyue''s nose is a little sour. Mo Shaochen smiled, "why, I''m so moved to have a supper with you?" "..." Li Xiaoyue was stunned by the emotion just brewing. "Let''s go?" Mo Shaochen didn''t seem to see the moist fundus of Li Xiaoyue''s eyes, so he took the lead in turning. Moved by Mo Shaochen''s kindness, Li Xiaoyue took out the paper and quickly wiped away her uncontrollable tears. ¡­¡­ Huakang hospital. Grandma said she could wake up at night, but Gu didn''t wake up at all. After checking again, Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen, who was staring at him, and shook his head solemnly. "Grandma Gu, if you can''t make it this time..." Li Yunze said to his mouth. He''s a doctor. He can''t be emotional. However, he can''t face Gu Beichen at the moment. Whether it''s Jian Mo or grandma Gu, there''s nothing he can do "Yunze," Gu Moyuan has wrung his eyebrows, "but what''s the matter?" The breath in the ward has condensed, and Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face has no half expression Turning around, he went to the window and looked at the square inch scenery reflected by the night lights outside. The eagle''s eyes gradually disappeared. Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen''s back and said heavily, "grandma Gu is old..." "Dong Dong" knocked on the door, breaking the dignity of the ward and Li Yunze''s words. When the nurse pushed the door in, "Li Shao, Mayor Wu was sent to the hospital..." Li Yunze looked at Gu Moyuan, "I''ll go and have a look first." Then he hurried away with the nurse. The air in the ward condenses again Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi looked at each other. "Beichen, just let me watch with your mother here... Go back and have a rest first?" Gu Beichen did not move or respond. Just like a sculpture, he stood there with his hands copying his pockets. "Beichen?" CEN Lanxi also frowned with concern. Gu Beichen reacted, but took out his mobile phone from his pocket and opened the SMS interface "Mom," Gu Beichen took back his mobile phone indifferently, "I heard... You slapped Mo''er again at that time?" CEN Lanxi immediately stared, "why, Jane Mo is suing you now?" Gu Beichen turned around and walked slowly. "Mom, why can''t you not embarrass her?" "Beichen, a woman you don''t like... You question your mother for her?" At the mention of Jian Mo, cen Lanxi seemed to stand up all over. "The problem between me and her is not what you think..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "What''s my cheating, what''s my new love... Or I''ve never loved her... Mom, do you think these news can come out without my permission?" CEN Lanxi was stunned for a moment. "I''m forcing her to leave..." Gu Beichen''s voice was sad. "I''m your son, but you''ve never understood me... Or you''ve never really cared about me." "I..." Cen Lanxi was questioned by Gu Beichen for a moment without words. She always felt something was wrong, but she couldn''t tell where it was. "Even if you don''t care, why can''t you not be embarrassed?" Gu Beichen''s voice was filled with disappointment. Gu Moyuan frowned, "why did you force Jane Mo to leave?" Even if Lanxi doesn''t agree, but according to Beichen''s character, he can''t compromise. Gu Beichen smiled. His smile was very light and light... But there was a thick sadness that people couldn''t ignore. "Jane Zhanfeng died because of her mother..." Gu Beichen''s voice was hollow with dignity. "How can I face her? Tell me..." Gu Beichen sneered, "I let her believe me, she believes unconditionally! But? Finally, Jane Zhanfeng didn''t die because of me, but because of my mother!" "What are you talking about?" The dull and empty voice came through hesitation Gu Beichen''s three eyes looked at the door of the ward for a moment, and they saw Jian morwei looking at Gu Beichen with his mouth open. The eyelashes kept trembling, and Jian Mo''s breathing became intermittent. Looking at Gu Beichen, he asked again, "you... What did you just say? What do you mean... My father died because of your mother?" Chapter 471 "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen''s voice was a little tight, as if surprised by the emergence of Jian Mo, he had lost his calmness and self-reliance. Jian Mo began to breathe heavily. She didn''t look at Cen Lanxi and Gu Moyuan, but stared at Gu Beichen. "This..." Jane Mo was so sad that she smiled. She didn''t know how to face such sudden news. "This... Is what you told me at that time... Why you shouldn''t provoke me?" Jian Mo''s eyelashes trembled and swept to the dense mist at the bottom of her eyes. She kept swallowing and inhaling in order to stand strong. CEN Lanxi has a cold face and worries in her eyes After all, it had been hidden for so many years, and she didn''t expect to be poked out under such circumstances. Gu Moyuan was worried... Look at Gu Beichen and Jian mo. "Really?" Jane Mo couldn''t wait for Gu Beichen''s answer, so she had to ask again. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and a word slowly overflowed his thin lips, "yes!" "Ah..." Jane Mo smiled, but mocked. There is self ridicule and ridicule of the world! "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo anxiously. "When did you know?" Jane Mo sniffed and asked, "or, actually... Did you know from the beginning?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but looked at Jian Mo like this When does it matter? Now... The only important thing is to force her to leave! Gu Beichen''s silence made Jian Mo''s heart uneasy. Gradually, a positive voice echoed in his mind. The tears in her eyes were always confined inside. Jian Mo dragged her tired and heavy body to Gu Beichen and looked up slightly. Her tears looked at him like this Gu Beichen saw such a simple foam. His heart was tingling and he couldn''t speak, so he could only pretend to look at her indifferently. Raising her hand, Jian Mo''s trembling fingers gently stroked Gu Beichen''s cheek. There are tears in the eyes, but the corners of the mouth smile She gently stroked Gu Beichen''s cheek, the most important man in her life... The smile from the corners of her mouth became more and more gorgeous in sadness. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen couldn''t help crying out in the end. Jian Mo''s nose was so sour that it hurt. Her hands were shaking from beginning to end... When Gu Beichen shouted her name, she put it down slowly. As if in slow motion, Jane Mo turned slowly At the moment of turning around, the tears in the eyes finally fell down. The bleak back is heartbreaking, and the powerless one is even more heartbreaking. Tears hit the cheeks and finally fainted at the corners of the mouth... The salty taste is like sprinkling a handful of salt on the wound of the heart. Jane Mo dragged her body powerlessly and walked forward step by step Press the elevator, go in, go out... Keep going! Everything seemed to be mechanically out of her conscious control. Under the ink sky, there are many stars, but it can''t illuminate the road of life People in the past subconsciously look at Jian Mo and speculate one by one. The smile on the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth was always hooked, and let the tears stain the smile... Dyed the original stiff smile into a piece of sadness. The mobile phone is ringing, and Jane Mo doesn''t care... Just move forward step by step. When she was standing on the Los Angeles River Bridge, she stopped numbly. "Mo''er, you have married me, so now... I just want to ask you, are you willing to live this life with me?" Gu Beichen''s proposal echoed in her mind, just like the gorgeous fireworks in the air the night before she left Los Angeles. Beauty, but it doesn''t seem to belong to her! "If I say no, do you believe me?" "No!" "Mo''er, thank you for believing me..." Gu Beichen''s words kept echoing in her ears. She believed that he didn''t hurt his father... But what happened in the end? The source of all this, indeed his mother! What is she going to do? Hehe Gu Beichen, in order to force me to leave, how can you tell me such a cruel truth? Even if I''m still alive, how can I face you? "Foam..." A low voice came from behind, with a complex emotion of weakness. Jian Mo turned mechanically and looked at Chu Zixiao''s eyes With a self deprecating smile, she stepped back. However, because she was too close to the bridge railing, she stepped back and her waist was already on it. Chu Zixiao felt worried for a moment in his eyes, but he felt too nervous for a moment. "Why are you here?" Jane asked with red eyes. Chu Zixiao''s temples moved, "I passed by and saw you..." Jane Mo smiled and smiled bleakly. What the hell is she asking for? Think Gu Beichen''s words were deliberately told to her just in the hospital, just to let her leave? Therefore, Chu Zixiao will appear in front of her next moment! The self mockery of Jane Mo''s mouth became deeper and deeper. She didn''t say anything, but turned around and walked powerlessly in the other direction Chu Zixiao frowned, "foam?" He shouted and caught up. Jane Mo ignored him and just walked forward step by step, as if he were just a scenery on the roadside that she was not in the mood to enjoy. Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, so he followed Jian Mo all the time I don''t know how long I''ve been walking. Even Jane Mo doesn''t know where she''s been at this moment? "Can you stop following me?" Jane Mo suddenly stopped, turned and roared at Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao frowned slightly, "no!" "Chu Zixiao, I hate you..." Jian Mo said gnashing his teeth, "not only you, but also Gu Beichen!" "Mo Mo......" Chu Zixiao''s heart coagulated instantly. "Now, are you satisfied?" Jian Mo sneered, "you finally see that I''m leaving Gu Beichen... But I won''t come back to you!" "Mo Mo, you''re kidding yourself. Do you understand?" Chu Zixiao said in a voice. Jane Mo smiled Tears have dried up all the way, and the eyes are dry and uncomfortable. Her smile at the moment makes people feel extraordinarily penetrating and sharp. "Yes, I''m just joking about me..." Jane Mo''s voice was cold and could not hide her hatred. "Aren''t you forcing me to live?" Chu Zixiao had never seen such a sharp Jian Mo, and subconsciously began to get nervous Jane Mo smiled more brightly. Under the faint street lamp, there was a kind of sad beauty... But such beauty was like Epiphyllum. "So..." Jian Mo''s smile slowly converged, "I''ll die and watch it for you..." her eyes were full of anger, "is this my revenge on you?" Chapter 472 Chu Zixiao suddenly became frightened. Jane Mo sneered, turned around and continued to walk... As if she didn''t know she was tired, her steps accelerated a lot. Chu Zixiao was stunned in situ for a while, and then he reacted. He hurried to catch up with him Suddenly A glare flashed across! Chu Zixiao subconsciously widened his eyes, turned his head and looked at the speeding car on one side. Almost running, he shouted: "Mo Mo --" "Squeak -" The harsh sound of sudden braking came, and the tire rubbed the asphalt and pulled out a long mark. Chu Zixiao''s face became pale, and his breath was almost broken Because of nervousness and fear, his heart beat like a drumstick, ''Dong Dong Dong''. However, the person in his arms did not respond at all. "Shit, how do you walk?" In the tense and dignified air, the driver shouted and scolded, "if you want to die, you''ll die. Don''t fucking drag me into the water... Shit!" When the voice of abuse fell, I heard the sound of engine starting... In the twinkling of an eye, the car left with anger. Chu Zixiao couldn''t stabilize his mood when he thought that he was about to witness Jian Mo being hit by a car. "Let go..." Jane Mo''s indifferent voice came, and her face with tears was even colder, making people feel that the soles of her feet were cold. Chu Zixiao let go of Jian Mo, but his eyes looked at her nervously. Jian Mo just looked at Chu Zixiao, then turned around and wanted to leave "Mo Mo, you..." before Chu Zixiao could say anything, he saw Jian Mo''s body shaking suddenly. He widened his eyes and stepped forward with an arrow to hold Jian Mo''s fallen body. "Foam -" The voice of worry and hesitation pierced the night sky, but could not disturb the solitude shrouded in darkness. When a text message arrived from the mobile phone, Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone, and the handsome face reflected by the light of the mobile phone screen was full of haze. "Miss Jane has been taken away by Chu Zixiao..." Gu Beichen looked at the text message and smiled at himself with his thin lips. The line of sight inched and fell on the last text message "Miss Jane has arrived at the hospital and has just entered the elevator!" Self mockery can no longer describe Gu Beichen''s treacherous smile at the moment. He pressed out his mobile phone and put it back in his pocket. His indifferent eyes fell on the night light outside the window At that time, after receiving a text message from the bodyguard, he deliberately provoked the topic of what his mother did to Jane Zhanfeng. Deliberately let her hear and force her to leave with one last means... Is the only thing he can do. He knew she was stubborn, but he never thought that she was so stubborn. Zixiao''s persecution doesn''t matter to him, but she can''t do it to her. For a few days of sweetness, she can see her leave the world forever. Hate it, Mo''er! Hate it At least, you''re alive. Time always heals all wounds... Your life should not be here at last. "Beichen..." a weak voice came from behind, showing weakness. Gu Beichen quickly turned around and strode to the hospital bed, "grandma..." Grandma Gu looked at Gu Beichen weakly and raised her dry hand to touch her grandson. "Yun Ze, come and see." Gu Beichen said and wanted to call Li Yunze. Grandma Gu shook her head powerlessly. She still knew her body. "You can talk with me for a while..." grandma Gu said faintly. "Wait a minute, let the boy Yunze come and watch." Gu Beichen seemed to feel something, nodded and installed his mobile phone back. "Grandma wants to tell me about my second uncle?" Gu Beichen asked. Grandma Gu nodded, "hold him silently..." "Not your own." Gu Beichen answered faintly. Grandma Gu was a little surprised, "you, you know?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen said slowly, "I not only know that he is not your own, but also know... He lied to his father that Jian Chang is his son." Grandma Gu was more and more surprised. "You... What did you say?" "The second uncle used my sample as Jane''s, and made DNA comparison with his father..." Gu Beichen''s voice was very calm. "He lied to his father that Jane''s is his son, trying to make his father feel guilty and get the password of his family''s deposit in the Swiss bank!" "Grandma, Gu family..." Gu Beichen seemed to reassure grandma Gu, "it''s never what I''m worried about." Grandma Gu didn''t seem to have to say what she wanted to say How could she worry about this grandson''s ability? How can the grandson taught by himself and the old man be bad? "You know..." grandma Gu''s eyes began to turn red. Gu Beichen nodded. "Since four years ago, I have deployed..." he laughed at himself, "but no matter how precise the game is, it can''t stand an accident." Grandma Gu looked at Gu Beichen painfully, "Xiaomo?" Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and didn''t speak. "You have to clear the obstacles before you can create a peaceful life for her..." grandma Gu said slowly. "It''s just that grandma regrets... Maybe there''s no way to see the life you gave her." Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Even if he didn''t want to, he must accept the reality Yunze said that this is Grandma''s deadline. He just said those words. He just didn''t want his grandmother to leave. He also had to worry about taking care of everything at home, which made her feel ashamed of her grandfather and leave with regret. Take care of the family, or the Emperor... All of it, he is just waiting for an opportunity. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao looked at the unconscious Jian Mo and kept dialing the mysterious man''s phone, but the number was empty all the time. He tried to send text messages, but he didn''t send any As before, if the mysterious person doesn''t call him or let him find it, he doesn''t have any ability to this number at all. Calling again and again, Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo anxiously... There are still a few days left. Why did he faint? Suddenly, the mobile phone vibrated in his hand. Almost at the same time, Chu Zixiao looked at his mobile phone and saw that it was a mysterious man. The light flashed in his eyes He quickly picked it up and put it in his ear. Without waiting for the other party to speak, he urgently asked, "where''s the last medicine?" The mysterious man was silent first, and then asked, "why... Jane Mo has returned to you?" "Don''t you know if you''re back?" Chu Zixiao couldn''t help shouting, "you were told that you didn''t stare at me behind your back!" "Ha ha... You know very well when you arrive!" The mysterious man''s processed laughter is very strange. Chu Zixiao pinched his hand, endured the fury of the madness in his body, clenched his teeth and asked, "where''s the medicine!" "What''s the hurry?" The mysterious man said slowly. "Mo Mo fainted. What do you say I''m worried about?" Chu Zixiao roared uncontrollably. The mysterious man was not in a hurry. "Don''t worry... She will wake up before it''s time." "What do you want?" "It''s very simple..." the mysterious man said with a smile. "When the emperor''s shareholders'' meeting is over, I will naturally give you medicine." Chu Zixiao gritted his teeth. "It means... If I help Beichen, Momo will die, won''t it?" Chapter 473 "I didn''t say..." the mysterious man smiled, "even, I don''t think so... Why don''t you try?" Chu Zixiao clenched his teeth and wanted to tear the person on the other side of the phone. "Chu Zixiao, don''t play tricks. You can''t afford to play..." the mysterious man sneered, "some plays are not suitable for you to lead." Chu Zixiao''s hands were clenched tighter and tighter. In the quiet space, there was a "quack" sound of dislocation of bone joints. At the right time, there was an auxiliary line telephone access. He looked down and saw that it was Jane truss''s, and his eyes were slightly restrained. There was no tube. "I just want to know, how can you give me the medicine?" Chu Zixiao gritted his teeth. "Wait two days..." the mysterious man smiled, "well, when it''s time to give it to you, it will naturally give it to you..." The mysterious man smiled and hung up. Listening to the hanging sound of "Dudu Dudu" inside, Chu Zixiao suddenly closed his eyes. Even so... There is no way to suppress the inner manic breath. The mobile phone vibrated again. Chu Zixiao didn''t see who called, so he picked it up "Come out for a drink?" Jane Joong sat in the paradise night box, lazily. "No." Chu Zixiao spoke indifferently. Jian Heng smiled, "studying the case?" Chu Zixiao opened his eyes. The bottom of his eyes was completely cold and fierce. "If you''re worried about the shareholders'' meeting, you''re worried." "I''m really worried..." Jian Heng smiled and shook the wine glass. "After all, your mind now... Who knows?" "Hum," Chu Zixiao snorted coldly, "are you afraid of such a careful plan?" After asking a rhetorical question, Chu Zixiao didn''t wait for Jian truss to speak again, and coldly hung up the phone. Weakly lying on the sofa, Chu Zixiao looked at the ceiling with his eyes open. The lights played different patterns on the roof, and gradually lost his mind Wrong step, wrong step... Is that him? Got up and went to the bedroom. Jian Mo''s sleep is still very stable. Chu Zixiao sat down by the bed, slightly attached to his body and gently stirred Jian Mo''s hair It''s a little longer than when I came back. Maybe there are too many things that have not been taken care of recently. It seems that the whole person is extremely haggard from hair style to face. "Mo Mo, I''m sorry..." Chu Zixiao''s voice was gloomy and dumb. "My unwillingness has caused the current situation... But I can only go on like this again and again." "I don''t want your understanding anymore..." Under the same night, several places were dark. Gu Beichen looked at grandma Gu, who fell into a coma again. The depth of the ink pupil was completely dark and vicious. Li Yunze has a headache and wants to comfort, but he finds that he doesn''t know how to comfort... Or Beichen doesn''t need comfort now. "Why don''t you take a break?" Li Yunze said after all, "if you endure like this, your body will collapse... What about Jane Mo? What about the emperor?" Gu Beichen got up, "Yunze, I boiled it out in those three months. What else can''t I boil?" A rhetorical question surprised Li Yunze. Those three months are the taboo of Beichen. He hasn''t mentioned it so directly since he stood up. "Beichen..." Li Yunze was worried. "I''m fine!" Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze calmly, "but I think the worst result now is that I look at Mo''er from a distance... She hurts, I accompany! She smiles, I look at! She is sad... I hurt!" Li Yunze frowned at the sword "That''s all!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a smile, but that smile was seeping. "Beichen, maybe the root of the pain is just because we want too much." Li Yunze suddenly felt it. Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze with his eyes slightly narrowed. "It''s too painful to leave life and death... Yunze, there''s no past that can''t be let go." After a pause, he said slowly, "if you can''t let go of Yining, don''t embarrass yourself." Li Yunze suddenly changed his face. "It''s not easy to be together..." Gu Beichen sighed, "don''t let yourself be immersed in sadness all the time." "I''ll discuss the matter with him for a while." Li Yunze didn''t speak, but watched Gu Beichen leave He knew that Beichen gave him a chance to calm down after the bomb was dropped. ¡­¡­ It''s the next day that Jane Mo woke up. The sun outside has penetrated the curtains, and the air conditioner in the house can''t resist the heat flow. She looked at the strange environment, frowned slightly, looked around, and her memory slowly drew back. When I opened the quilt and got up, I saw a note on the bedside table. "The new toiletries are in the bathroom, the laundry is on the sofa, and the breakfast is in the kitchen... Be responsible for yourself. I hope you don''t go out... Zixiao!" When Jian Mo saw the word "Zixiao", his heart began to get heavy. She threw the note back on the table, got out of bed and went to the bathroom. After washing, she changed into clean clothes. Jane Mo stuffed the changed clothes back into the bag and left. Jane Mo walked aimlessly in the street Although the feeling of fainting yesterday was different from that before, according to the time, she knew... She had no time. Standing in the crowded street, everyone''s busy footsteps make Jane Mo feel that she is not just passing her life. She has too many things to do Shao Shi''s design didn''t go to see the milk bag Thinking of the milk bag, Jane Mo''s nose suddenly became sour. What kind of desperate situation did she and Gu Beichen fall into? People all over the world can''t stand it. She can insist... But her father died because of her mother. What is she going to do? What can she do? "The emperor''s shareholders'' meeting will be held in half an hour..." Jane Mo frowned slightly and looked conditionally at the small display screen placed at the door of the store. "This time, it will be another battle between the dragon and the tiger after the shareholders'' meeting last month." The host said the news words skillfully, "according to our reporter''s interview, Gu mohuai showed unprecedented confidence this time... Even, say the final conclusion, he has a good chance to win!" At the gate of emperor group, a large number of media have already been congested Today is clear to everyone that it will be the last battle for the emperor. No matter who loses or wins, the emperor''s history will enter the next process. "Chen Shao..." Susan put the coffee on her desk and looked at Gu Beichen''s back with some worry. Gu Beichen stood in front of the window, "Susan, I''m afraid it''s too late..." Susan had a heavy heart. "Chen Shao always knew what he wanted... A race against time. In fact... You have won." "Maybe..." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes, collected the complex emotions at the bottom of his eyes, and turned around. However, in an instant, he had recovered his indifference, and his arrogant eyes were even more arrogant. Chapter 474 "According to the report sent back from the front... Emperor shareholders have arrived one after another." "The shareholders'' meeting has entered the countdown... Emperor, as a multinational enterprise and its influence on Los Angeles, this shareholders'' meeting has attracted extensive attention from all walks of life..." "It''s said that Chen Shao''s performance is still confusing... For the battle between normal shareholders, when the old lady of Gu''s family is still unconscious, who loses and who wins?" "Grandma Gu''s coma is reportedly related to the shareholders'' meeting... Imagine that the competition between her son and grandson, no matter who wins or loses, is all paid by the old man!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The media of all parties seized the focus of their news specialization and began to make targeted remarks, so that on this day... People in Los Angeles didn''t care about their own affairs and paid full attention to the progress of the emperor''s shareholders'' meeting. At the beginning of the shareholders'' meeting, Jian Mo endured for a long time. After all, she still couldn''t resist sending a text message to Gu Beichen Mo''er: I don''t know how we will end, but... Ah Chen, you will always be the man who can give me a strong arm. I love you and never stop... Even when my life ends! Gu Beichen''s feet just came to the door of the conference room. Looking at Jian Mo''s text message, his eagle eyes narrowed in an instant. Gu Zong: loving yourself is the best way to interpret loving me. Tears, so inadvertently fell down Clearly in love, but have to go through life and death... Is it her and Gu Beichen? Jane Mo hung her hands powerlessly, walked to the roadside and took a taxi, "cemetery." The driver looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror. After answering the sound, he drove the car to the cemetery The news about the emperor''s shareholders'' meeting came from the radio. While waiting for the traffic light, the driver opened his mouth: "the emperor''s business is very noisy this time..." "Yes!" Jane Mo answered politely. "Mrs. Gu, what do you think?" Jane Mo frowned slightly. She couldn''t laugh or cry about her current popularity. "I believe him!" Jane Mo said faintly. The driver was obviously surprised. Looking at Jane Mo from the rearview mirror for a long time, he couldn''t react "Didi" The sound of the horn came from behind. Seeing that the light was green, the driver hurried to start the car. "I didn''t expect you to trust Ren Chen so much..." the driver said with a smile. "He is my husband!" After Jane Mo spoke faintly, she looked out of the window without talking again. In midsummer, the sun is so hot that it seems to scorch people. You can see the heat rising within your sight. Occasionally, the wind came, with the cold smell of the cemetery alone, dispelling the heat wave. "Dad, mom..." Jane Mo sat beside the tombstone with her face on it. "I miss you so much." Jian Mo smiled with self mockery and remained silent for a long time before opening his mouth: "I don''t know what I want to do... I don''t know whether to hate or not, but anyway, I don''t seem to have a reason to insist. What should I do?" "Dad, you told me before that people''s life is not long. Don''t put some unnecessary chains on themselves..." Jane Mo''s eyes are a little red. "But what can I do to not care about your departure?" Tears, burning cheeks, showed sadness and fainted at the corners of the mouth. "I can''t hold on..." Jian Mo''s voice choked badly. "I really want to be cowardly once. I don''t care about anything. I just want to accompany you..." ¡­¡­ The shareholders'' meeting became anxious with the extension of time under the waiting of everyone. Reporters are waiting outside one by one in panic. Today''s meeting determines the turmoil of the emperor''s stock market. For some people... It''s a competition for money. "It''s been three hours..." someone said anxiously looking at the time. "Wait, it''s going to come out today anyway." "Alas, just waiting makes people anxious..." Under the scorching sun, the mood of the media is anxious. In the conference room, the atmosphere is really dignified, making people feel like sitting on ice and fidgeting. Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face has no half expression. From beginning to end, it seems that the atmosphere in the conference room has nothing to do with him... Even the theme of the conference can''t control him at all. This bearing and momentum alone is not comparable to that of some people. The corner of Jian Chang''s mouth was cold and looked at Chu Zixiao from time to time Chu Zixiao hung his eyes from beginning to end. No one could see and guess what he was thinking? "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing shouted softly and handed Gu Beichen his mobile phone. Everyone''s eyes fell on Gu Beichen in an instant. They guessed in their hearts that Xiao Jing had to let Gu Beichen see something important at the moment. Gu Beichen looked down calmly. When he saw the content of the text message... But in an instant, his face changed slightly. Gu mohuai exchanged eyes with Jian Heng, and looked at Gu Beichen again When he looked again, Gu Beichen had recovered his calm, as if... The instant change just now was just dazzled. Such tension forms a strong contrast with the calm in the cemetery "Mom, I''m so wayward. Am I not responsible for the milk bag?" Jane Mo kept saying, and her tears kept coming, "but in order to live, I not only let ah Chen suffer criticism, but even milk bags..." Sniffing, Jian Mo''s tears became more fierce. "Even if they don''t mind, I can''t face others poking the backbone behind their father and son." "How can I bear to see this? I don''t want to give up the milk bag and gossip behind someone''s back, and I don''t want someone to embarrass ah Chen... I love them, so I hope they are all good... Even if they can''t be perfect, at least minimize the damage!" Jane Mo smiled, even if it was ugly, "so it''s my leaving that''s the best, isn''t it?" When she said this, Jane Mo smiled brightly Under the sun, the light reflects beautiful colors on tears. That kind of smile is relieved and beautiful Jane Mo tilted her head and kissed on the tombstone, "Dad, mom... Please forgive my cowardice. Only giving up is the best start. I love you and the man named Gu Beichen, and the milk bag!" Farewell words are to say with a smile and cry bitterly. But these are not enough for Jane to express her mood at the moment. That''s it Good! Jane Morse walked down step by step, looked at the gate of the cemetery and slowly dried her tears, "ah Chen, you said... Time can heal everything." She took a deep breath, smiled at herself and continued to lift her feet down "Jane Mo?" Suddenly, a voice came from one side, showing surprise, but it was difficult to hide the elegance and tenderness under his voice. Jane Mo looked around with the sound... When she saw the man standing in the sun, she first frowned slightly. The man smiled at Jane Mo, "don''t you remember me?" Jane Mo''s eyes brightened in an instant, "is it you?" Chapter 475 Shi juechi, wearing a white short sleeved polo shirt and light blue casual pants, stood in the sun... At that moment, with his unique gentle smile, it was beautiful. Jane Mo''s eyes tingled in the sun because she had cried. Shi juechi walked forward, smiling all the time. "Although the place is a little strange, I''m glad to meet you again." Jane Mo also smiled, but because her eyes were red, she smiled a little far fetched. "You are..." Jane Mo opened her mouth, but stopped talking. It seemed inappropriate to ask anything. Shi Juxi smiled, "I came to see an old man... It''s an old friend!" "Oh..." Jane Mo answered, "I... I came to see my parents." Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo''s eyes, "I can see that you should be a very close person." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and lowered her eyes. "Didn''t you meet..." Shi Juxi smiled and turned off the topic. "Did you have a chance to have dinner together last time?" Jian Mo looks up at Shi juechi. She doesn''t know why. She doesn''t seem to reject the man who can only be regarded as one-sided friends with him. "I''m afraid not..." Jane Mo shook her head. "I''m a little busy." "That''s better next time..." Shi juechi said with a smile and didn''t mind at all. Jane nodded. "If I have a chance next time, I''ll invite you." "Good!" Shi Juxi readily agreed. "Well..." Jane Mo Chuo said to the corner of her mouth, "I''ll go first." Shi juechi smiled and nodded, so he watched Jian Mo down the stairs until he disappeared at the gate of the cemetery, and his eyes didn''t pull back When the mobile phone suddenly rang, Shi Juxi took it out, looked at it and picked it up. "By no means, Qin Shao may have found it." There was an anxious voice on the phone. "I saw what Morson seemed to be looking for?" Shi juechi always had a faint smile on his face. When he looked back, he said, "don''t mess up..." he paused, and then said, "just follow what I told you..." "But..." "No, but!" Shi juechi interrupted the other party. "Anyway, Shaoqin can''t kill me." "If you say so, what else can I say?" The other party was obviously dissatisfied with Shi juechi''s words, but he was unable to refute them. "Sample, thank you." "By no means, aren''t you cold mixed with me?" The sample sighed, "anyway, since I promised you, I put my head in my hand..." Listening to his humming voice, Shi juechi smiled... But that smile showed a little worry. Race against time with his understanding of Shaoqin However, in a sense, he also used Shaoqin''s trust in him, which was a betrayal. But what can I do? In such a situation, he is afraid that there is no room for maneuver in the end. ¡­¡­ The emperor''s shareholders'' meeting is in full swing. In the twinkling of an eye, it''s more than two o''clock in the afternoon The media is becoming more and more anxious in the hot sun. Some people have found a cool place to avoid, but their eyes are staring at the gate. "Isn''t that too long?" Some people began to complain, "isn''t it just a re-election vote? How many hours does it take?" "Who knows if there will be any reversal?" "I''m on Chen Shao''s side... To be honest, if the emperor reorganizes now, it may not be good for the economy." ¡°¡­¡­¡± People in the media are studying in twos and threes, and the conference room is even more dignified. "I support Chen Shao!" "I support Chen Shao..." "I also support Chen Shao..." Gu muhuai looked at those shareholders holding scattered shares, and a sneer gradually overflowed from the corners of his mouth. One by one, the shareholders did not dare to see Gu muhuai, swallowed it secretly, and looked elsewhere after saying their support. Gu Beichen''s indifference from beginning to end seems indifferent to everyone''s voting Even when Gu Yuan voted for Gu mohuai, his expression didn''t change at all. "I..." the last shareholder swallowed it secretly. When he looked at Gu mohuai, he was obviously nervous, "I... Also voted for Chen Shao!" Chu Zixiao smiled. He and his second aunt, who should have voted for Beichen, voted for the second master. The scattered shareholders who should have supported the second master turned to Beichen... From the beginning, the second master actually lost. And he, from the beginning and Beichen put forward the condition of foam, was already his abandoned son! Chu Zixiao''s smile became more and more obvious, but he didn''t know whether it was self mockery or something. Gu mohuai''s face has turned pig liver color. He looked at Gu Beichen angrily in his eyes. "It turns out... You dug a big hole and let me jump!" "Yes..." Gu Beichen gently lifted his thin lips. "Second uncle, you have planned everything for so many years. Don''t... I don''t need to plan ahead?" The corners of the mouth slightly hooked a sneer, and the sharp eagle eyes coldly fell on Gu mohuai, "at the beginning, it has been doomed to the end." With a cold hum, Gu Beichen stood up, "thank you for your trust. I hope the emperor can bring more benefits to you next." After that, he looked at Gu mohuai''s anger again, "break up the meeting!" Words fall, while he takes back his sight, he turns around and crosses Chu Zixiao. When he crosses Chu Zixiao, the bottom of his eyes is filled with thoughts that people can''t understand. Xiao Jing opened the door of the conference room and heard Gu Beichen say, "let the public relations department hold a press conference in an hour." "Yes!" Susan answered. After Gu Beichen left, the shareholders got up one after another. One by one, with an embarrassed face, nodded with Gu muhuai and left the conference room as quickly as he ran away. "Sometimes, some things... May have been doomed long ago?" Chu Zixiao said faintly and got up and left the meeting room indifferently. After entering the elevator, he didn''t go downstairs, but went to the top floor. "Chu Shao!" Xiao Jing saw Chu Zixiao coming out of the elevator and said hello, "Chen Shao is waiting for you in the office." Chu Zixiao nodded and turned coldly to the office When entering, Gu Beichen was answering the phone, "have you gone back?" "Miss Jane has just entered the villa." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, glanced at Chu Zixiao and motioned, "Xiao Jing has told Xiao Nan. I''ll arrange two more people for you to have a rest." After explaining, Gu Beichen hung up. "How''s your side?" Gu Beichen asked calmly. Chu Zixiao sat down opposite and shook his head, with complex emotions on his face. Gu Beichen was silent and took out his cigarette to light it "Beichen..." Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen anxiously. Gu Beichen had some haze on his face. "Mo''er''s medicine... If it''s really second uncle and Jian Heng, they will find you today!" He lowered his eyes and flicked the ash, "if not..." "Who would that be?" Chu Zixiao couldn''t wait for Gu Beichen''s next words. Ning Sheng asked. Chapter 476 Gu Beichen didn''t tell Chu Zixiao who it was. Zixiao became sharp for Mo''er and changed his mind for Mo''er... It''s just a love. He doesn''t want Zixiao to be involved in too many things. "You go. It''s not good to stay with me for a long time." Gu Beichen spoke faintly. Chu Zixiao frowned slightly and wanted to ask something, but he nodded and got up without asking Just as he put his hand on the doorknob, Chu Zixiao suddenly stopped and looked slightly at Gu Beichen. "Grandma is the one who forced uncle Jane to death..." he hesitated and asked, "is it true?" Beichen asked him to cooperate in the hospital and said there was a way to make Mo Mo have to leave him But it turned out to be by the Yujing lake. Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but his eyes were indifferent to Chu Zixiao. "Well, you don''t need to say anything..." Chu Zixiao clutched the doorknob. "Now it seems useless to say this." With a self mocking smile, Chu Zixiao suddenly opened the door and left with big steps When the last medicine disappeared, he already knew that if he wanted Mo Mo to live, he could only cooperate with Beichen However, today''s form is more and more unfavorable. Even if Beichen can turn clouds and rain, there is no way to find the mysterious man. They clearly did tracking, but the other side was better... Now they have to wait and have nothing to do. The press conference was already preparing. When the media received the news that Gu Beichen still got the master control in the end, the people of Los Angeles jumped happily one by one For the public, there is a habit that someone will accompany you in your life even if he doesn''t know you. And this man... Is obviously Gu Beichen who crushed the hearts of men and women in all aspects. "Little grandma, have some soup?" Aunt Luo saw that Jane Mo came back with red eyes and began to draw design drawings. She was distressed on her face. "Thank you, aunt Luo..." Jane Mo didn''t lift her head and continued to draw with a drawing pen. If according to ah Chen, her time is only one or two days She has to get Shao Shi''s design drawings out today... She also has to look at the milk bag and talk to her grandmother. Aunt Mo turned and looked at her. She didn''t leave again Jane Mo doesn''t know whether it''s because of worry or something. There''s a steady stream of inspiration... It''s like going back to the time when she designed the club. Looking at the 3D rendering, Jane Mo''s mouth gradually overflowed with laughter Looking up at the time, it was already more than ten o''clock in the evening. After passing the design drawing to Shao Shi, Jian Mo sent him a text message: the interior design has been completed. If you are free, please have a look. If there is anything wrong, I can change it. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s message and frowned slightly. "Qin Shao..." Mosen stepped forward in time, "the whereabouts of Jue Shao is on Matterhorn peak." "I''m still stubborn to see the Glacier..." Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s message and smiled at the evil spirit. "I thought he would go to find Jian Mo!" Morson frowned slightly and stood quietly aside. Shi Shaoqin opened the mailbox, looked at the design drawing of Jian Mo and pointed out that he was not very satisfied Jian Mo looked at that place in surprise. Is Shaoshi''s idea her favorite design? As like as two peas, all the ideas and preferences of this person are exactly the same as her. Just thinking, the mobile phone rang and Jian Mo picked it up. He heard Shi Shaoqin say, "that one needs to be modified. I''m very satisfied with everything else." "In fact... At the beginning, I wanted to design it, but when I thought that I was afraid of serious personal preferences, I designed it according to your temperament." Jane Mo said with some bad consciousness. Shi Shaoqin smiled and said in a magnetic and charming voice, "our concept has always been the same, hasn''t it?" Jane Mo laughed, "I''ll pass it on to you after modification." "Good!" Shi Shaoqin answered, "don''t be too busy too late." After hanging up, Jian Mo revised the place Shi Shaoqin said and sent it to her again Looking at the 3D rendering on the computer, Jian Mo''s eyes are a little red... Her home and ah Chen haven''t had time to design. Is this another kind of sustenance for her? Suck your nose, get up "Well", Jane Mo almost instinctively propped herself on the table. The dizziness of the earth was overwhelming, followed by the dizziness of only, and her body was weak and could not stand at all. Feebly, she sat back in her chair, and Jian Mo''s breathing became intermittent... Even accompanied by a feeling of nausea. "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo whispered, his nose was a little grumbling, and his eyes looked unreal at the front, "ah Chen..." She cried subconsciously, as if Gu Beichen were in the house. But no one Tears, the moment before fainting, overflow from the corners of your eyes... It is a kind of powerlessness and despair. Late at night, Huakang hospital was full of suppressed tension and busyness. Li Yunze finally went back to sleep, lay down and was called over. "What''s going on?" Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen and asked, "isn''t it time yet?" Gu Beichen''s cold face was filled with the smell of forest cold, "I don''t know." Li Yunze glanced at him and went to see Jian Mo first. "No, first inject the initial medicine?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak. After a while, he said, "Yunze, I''m afraid..." Li Yunze''s heart was pulled in an instant. Beichen told him that he was afraid? "Let''s see it later in the evening?" Li Yunze added that he had no idea at all. Gu Beichen closed his eyes, took out his mobile phone, opened the text message and handed it to Li Yunze Li Yunze frowned suspiciously before taking over. It was a text message with a hidden number: letting go of Jian Mo completely was the best choice for her. Play means, you can''t play It seems to be a threatening text message, but it makes people strongly feel the other party''s anxiety and advice. "This is..." Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously. "I received it at the shareholders'' meeting..." Gu Beichen said in a voice. "I''ve also received it before to let me leave Mo''er." Li Yunze''s heart was tense uncontrollably. He bit his teeth and asked nervously, "could it be... Shi Shaoqin?" Li Yunze said the name as if he had been cut. Gu Beichen shook his head with a heavy face and uncontrollable resistance at the bottom of his eyes. "It won''t be him... Just, I doubt that the person behind this matter is him!" Li Yunze only felt that his head exploded with a bang. "Didn''t he say it was impossible before?" "What if he deliberately created a lot of rules to make us doubt but vetoed his decision in order to put me in such a desperate situation?" Gu Beichen asked. Li Yunze stepped back weakly, "that is to say... It''s possible that even if Zixiao got the last medicine, it might be a trap?" Chapter 477 Gu Beichen was silent and shook his head, "I don''t know." Li Yunze closed his eyes. When he opened them, his eyes were completely angry "Shi Shaoqin, is he finished?" Li Yunze gritted his teeth, turned and opened the door of the ward and left in a big step. Gu Beichen slowly turned around and looked at Jian Mo, who was pale, and the center of his eyebrows gradually twisted together. Holding his heavy body, he walked over, sat down by the hospital bed and slowly attached himself... Gu Beichen gently kissed Jian Mo''s slightly dry lips. "Mo''er, just talk to Zixiao..." Gu Beichen closed his eyes and covered up the pain at the bottom of his eyes. "I gave you all your suffering now... How can you continue?" The thin corners of the lips show a sense of sadness under self mockery, which is a kind of powerlessness. For Gu Beichen, who is high up and has controlled the fate of too many people... Such weakness is like a poisonous insect that eats his blood and empties his soul bit by bit. Li Yunze called Long Xiao when he returned to the office However, it has been unable to connect. Frowning, Li Yunze dialed again, but he still couldn''t get through. "Boss long can''t get through?" Li Yunze whispered and called Xiao Nan, "isn''t boss long in Los Angeles?" "Brother Xiao has gone to the beach." Xiao Nan said. "Ah?" Li Yunze wondered, "when did you leave?" "In the afternoon..." Xiao Nan''s voice was a little heavy. "Sister Nuan seems to have an accident. They all followed me here except me." Li Yunze frowned. The only person in the world who can stir the Dragon owl is probably the woman called warm. If something happens to her wait! What happened? Li Yunze was slightly stunned. It seems that the last time he was in special need here, something happened to warmth... This time again? I don''t know why, Li Yunze''s heart began to panic. He didn''t know whether it was a coincidence or someone deliberately. If it was intentional, he really couldn''t think of anyone who had this ability except Shi Shaoqin. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao drove his car and shuttled frantically on the road. After his mobile phone was connected to Bluetooth, he kept replaying the mysterious man''s phone. Unfortunately, I can''t get through all the time. "Squeak -" The harsh brake sound came from the gate of Paradise night. The little brother who parked the car looked at it. Chu Zixiao got out of the car and threw the key to him. Chu Zixiao walked into the paradise night and went to the box of Jian chang Without any omen, he pushed open the box door and surprised the hostess who was pouring wine for Jane truss. "Get out!" Chu Zixiao spoke coldly. The hostess xinjian''er was trembled by the cold tone, looked at Jian Chang timidly, saw him nod, and then withdrew. "So angry?" Jian Heng sneered, "didn''t I annoy you?" Chu Zixiao came forward coldly and grabbed Jian Chang''s collar. "Jian Chang, are you still not human?" Jane truss frowned secretly, but pushed Chu Zixiao away without changing her face. "If you want to go crazy, don''t look for me... I''m in a bad mood today." Originally, everything was waiting for the emperor to get it today, but in the end? Unexpectedly, those shareholders who have always supported the second uncle have long voted for Gu Beichen. "Jane, where''s the medicine?" Chu Zixiao asked, gritting his teeth. "What medicine?" Jane truss didn''t react. Chu Zixiao''s face became sinister, "foam medicine, the last medicine!" Each word is squeezed out from the teeth. It can be seen that Chu Zixiao has endured to the limit at the moment. Jane truss was stunned for a long time before he could react enough. What did Chu Zixiao say, "I don''t have medicine..." he frowned slightly, "Xiao Mo fainted again?" "You have no medicine?" Chu Zixiao was stunned, "Jian Heng, you want shares to support me, but when you''re ready, you tell me you don''t have medicine?" He came forward angrily, grabbed Jian Heng and pulled him up. "Mo Mo is your own sister. Do you want to watch her die?" Jian truss put his hands around Chu Zixiao''s wrist and tried to push him away, but there was no way, "I didn''t give Xiaomo''s medicine... Last time I just wanted you to help me step on it and deliberately guide you. Chu Zixiao... You let go!" Chu Zixiao looked at Jian truss incredulously. Although he later felt that he was not Jian truss... But at this moment, when the mysterious man''s phone has been unable to get through, he can only place his hope on Jian truss. The mobile phone buzzed in the pocket at the right time, and the voice of the phone entering came from Bluetooth. Chu Zixiao pushed away Jian Heng and took out his mobile phone when he saw him fall and sit on the sofa The caller ID was "mysterious man". Chu Zixiao''s heart almost stopped beating because of tension at that moment. Hurriedly picked up and went out. At the moment of closing the door, Jane truss could still hear the sound floating in "Medicine, I want medicine!" "Chu Zixiao, I said..." the mysterious man''s voice hummed coldly, "don''t try to play tricks." "What do you want to say?" Chu Zixiao gnashed his teeth. The mysterious man snorted coldly, "today''s emperor shareholders'' meeting, you and Gu Beichen played a play... Isn''t it?" Chu Zixiao''s heart suddenly trembled, "I don''t understand what you said... I just want to know, where''s the medicine?" "Don''t understand?" The mysterious man sneered, "since you want to give Jane Mo, you have regretted what you did before... Gu Beichen knows you so well. Your few meetings seem to be exposed in front of others, but you have reached a consensus under the cover of words, haven''t you?" Chu Zixiao''s breathing began to be heavy "Including today''s shareholders'' meeting, who your shares support, in fact... Can''t change the established outcome at all." The voice of the mysterious man became indifferent. "How can you give me the medicine?" Chu Zixiao asked without refutation or explanation. The mysterious man was silent for a long time before slowly opening his mouth: "three o''clock tomorrow afternoon... Come to the villa before." "You..." "Doodle doodle..." Before Chu Zixiao spoke, the other party still hung up. Chu Zixiao listened to the hanging sound and clenched his hands. ¡­¡­ In the VVIP ward of Huakang hospital, from left to right, grandma Gu and Jian mo were unconscious. Gu Beichen''s big palm wrapped Jian Mo''s small hand, and the eagle''s eyes stared at her deeply. Waiting is the most tormenting thing in the world Because... Unknown! With the passage of time, the hesitation under the unknown gradually rises into anxiety, and people will start to think. In fact, he doesn''t worry about Mo''er''s death now. If it was Shi Shaoqin, how could he be willing to give up Mo''er''s move to torture himself? In the absence room, there was an emergency alarm outside. Before Gu Beichen could react, the door of the ward was pushed open, "Chen Shao, old lady Gu is dangerous..." Chapter 478 Almost at the same time, Gu Beichen put down Jian Mo''s hand, but his action was gentle in a hurry... Then he got up and strode out of the ward. Grandma Gu had been pushed into the operating room. When Gu Beichen arrived, Li Yunze also strode over in a doctor''s robe. "I''ll go in and have a look..." Li Yunze said hurriedly, patted Gu Beichen on the shoulder and entered the operating room with the other two doctors. At night, it should be a time for a family to eat and watch TV. In Huakang hospital, however, there was a dignified atmosphere under the separation of life and death. Before long, Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi came one after another. The seemingly spacious corridor was congested. Xiao Jing bought water and some snacks to satisfy everyone''s hunger, but few people had an appetite. Grandma Gu is eighty-five years old. It''s understandable for the old man to leave at this age But it happens that grandma Gu is now held in silence by Gu. Xiao Jing looked around and sure enough, Gu mohuai didn''t come. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing took a cup of coffee and came forward. Gu Beichen took it and drank. The bitter taste fills the taste buds, making the already bitter mood seem to reach a peak. The footsteps of "pedal pedal pedal" hurried from far to near. When the people subconsciously looked, they saw Chu Zixiao running over with big steps. First, after looking at the light still on in the operating room, Chu Zixiao immediately looked at Xiao Jing, "what''s the situation with grandma?" Xiao Jing shook his head with a heavy face. Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen and immediately sat down beside him, "it''s not him!" Without reason, the people next to him were confused. At that time, Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "what did the other party say?" "Let me go tomorrow afternoon..." Chu Zixiao''s voice was dark and dignified. Gu Beichen''s thin lips coldly hooked, "I''m afraid... You can''t get the medicine tomorrow!" "That always wants to try..." Chu Zixiao is a little anxious. Gu Beichen was silent again. After a while, he nodded, "it''s the only way." Gu Yuan was slightly surprised, glanced at her husband, and then rubbed against Gu Ci''s side, "elder sister, Zixiao and Beichen... Seems to be all right?" "I don''t know..." Gu Ci was also at a loss. Isn''t Zixiao''s shares still invested in the second master this morning? Now it seems that there is no gap between Zixiao and Beichen? Gu Beichen ignored everyone''s confused eyes, but waited solemnly ¡­¡­ Under the cover of dark night, the ancient castle is particularly gloomy, just like a corner forgotten by the world, with a treacherous atmosphere. That kind of breath, unlike the human world, seems to seep out of hell. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window, and there was only one gap in the closed curtain He looked out from the gap, the dark light shrouded the sea, rolling waves... As if a storm was coming. "Dong Dong" knocked on the door. Shi Shaoqin restrained his eyes and said, "come in." Mosen pushed the door and came in. "Qin Shao, still didn''t find any trace of jueshao." "How big is Hongneng peak?" Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes and raised his hand in time. His sight fell on his slender jade like fingers, and the corners of his beautiful mouth put on an evil smile. Mosen hung his eyes and didn''t dare to speak. "Take everyone back..." Shi Shaoqin slowly opened his mouth and turned around with a thin smile on his handsome face. "Let someone send the design drawing of Jian mo. I want to see the completion of the villa this year." Morson looked up at Shi Shaoqin and replied, "OK!" Then he turned and wanted to go out "Arsene!" Mosen stopped and turned, "Qin Shao, what else can I do for you?" "You say..." Shi Shaoqin paused slightly and asked, "if Jue Chi is in Los Angeles now, what do you say I should do?" Morson''s face was uncontrollably shocked. "This..." he spit out a word hard, and he didn''t know what to say anymore. Shi Shaoqin looked at his tangled face and smiled, "it''s very difficult, isn''t it?" Before Mosen could answer, Shi Shaoqin turned around again, looked out through the gap in the curtain, and said in a cold voice, "he... Is my twin brother in the end." Morson''s heart was uncontrollably raised to his throat "However, he always wanted to betray me..." Shi Shaoqin''s words showed helplessness, but it made people cold at the bottom of their feet. Morson swallowed hard and secretly, then held his breath and said, "never less... It should be at Matterhorn." Shi Shaoqin''s good-looking corners of his mouth slightly drew a smile. That smile made people feel like a spring breeze... But the bottom of his eyes was cold. ¡­¡­ Su Jun left and went to the floor of the VVIP ward. After asking which ward the nurse Jian Mo was in, Junya''s face was anxious. Pushing open the door of the ward, Su Jun looked at the hospital bed subconsciously Where is the figure on the empty bed? Su Junli went in, looked at the terrace and then looked at the washroom. The door was open "Foam?" Su Junli shouted, and no one answered, "foam?" Su Junli raised his hand and knocked on the empty door, "Mo Mo?" No one Su Jun frowned and turned out of the ward. "Excuse me, where are the people in the ward?" The nurse looked blankly, "Miss Jane has been in a coma. Isn''t she in the ward?" "No one..." Su Jun''s eyebrows frowned tighter. "Impossible!" The nurse unconsciously refuted it. Su Junli''s voice became heavy, "it''s true that there''s no one. I see there''s no one on the terrace or in the washroom..." As soon as the nurse heard this, she panicked and hurried into the ward. She looked inside and outside, but there was really no Jane foam. "How possible?" After the nurse whispered, she hurried to the nurse station for monitoring. After Gu Beichen left, all the monitoring did not show that someone had passed Jian Mo''s ward, and there was no image of Jian Mo leaving "What the hell!" The nurses are about to cry. "Report to Chen Shao quickly?" Another nurse''s proposal. Now everyone is afraid, and that''s the only way. The nurse nodded sadly and hurried to the VIP operation floor Su Junli went with the nurse. When he saw the people in the corridor, he still frowned... He saw the news and grandma Gu went to the hospital. Gu Beichen watched the nurse trot over. Almost instantly, his heart mentioned to his throat. "Chen Shao..." the voice of the nurse was filled with a voice full of tears. Gu Beichen got up and looked at the nurse with eagle eyes, waiting for her to continue... If you remember correctly, she is a nurse in VVIP ward! "Is it Mo''er..." "Miss Jane is gone..." the nurse looked like she was about to cry. "I don''t know why." "What is foam gone?" Before Gu Beichen spoke, Chu Zixiao got up and asked. The nurse didn''t know what to say, but shook her head with red eyes. Su Junli glanced at her and said in a frozen voice, "Mo Mo is missing..." Chapter 479 Gu Beichen looked very cold. Before he had time to think about it, he wanted to take a step and run to Jianmo ward But the light in the operating room went out. "Beichen..." Cen Lanxi flashed a strange light at the bottom of her eyes and said hurriedly, "grandma came out." Gu Beichen just moved his body and stopped abruptly. He saw Li Yunze coming out with the medical staff. "Yunze, how''s grandma?" Seeing Li Yunze coming out, Gu CI hurriedly asked. Li Yunze took a look at her, then his sight crossed the crowd and fell on Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes slightly gathered and looked at Li Yunze. His thin lips had become a straight line. He didn''t say anything, just waiting Li Yunze took off his mask and his face was completely dignified. "Beichen..." he twitched at his temples, "I''m sorry!" The word "sorry" expresses all he has to say. "What do you mean?" Gu Moyuan widened his eyes, "Yunze, what are you talking about?" "Uncle Gu," Li Yunze''s sad nose was a little sour, "grandma, she..." he looked down and slowly spit out the words behind him in a heavy voice, "... Gone!" Everyone was stunned there for a moment. Although everyone was ready, it was hard to accept the result for a while. "Yunze... You, you..." Cen Lanxi turned pale. "What did you say?" Li Yunze raised his eyes, "aunt, grandma is gone." CEN Lanxi''s eyes turned red in an instant. Although there were too many disputes with her mother-in-law in her life, she suddenly heard about grandma Gu''s death, which was still difficult to accept for a time. "Mom, why did grandma leave like this?" Gu CI choked and said with red eyes, "I didn''t have time to say a word to us." Li Yunze looked at several people who had choked, and then went to Gu Beichen, "Beichen..." "I''m fine!" Gu Beichen immediately interrupted Li Yunze''s words. Li Yunze looked worried. He knew if there was anything wrong with his brother at the moment. Su Jun frowned, the foam disappeared, and grandma Gu left again... Is this a great blow to Gu Beichen? Gu Beichen''s hand was already clenched, but there was no superfluous expression on his cold, carved face except indifference. "Xiao Jing..." Gu Beichen gently lifted his thin lips. "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing looked dignified. Gu Beichen looked at him, "you stay." Xiao nodded and Gu Beichen turned and raised his feet Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen and Su Jun leaving, then frowned and looked at Xiao Jing, "Beichen, this is..." "Young lady is missing!" Xiao Jing leaned forward and whispered. Li Yunze suddenly widened his eyes, "how could it?" Xiao Jing''s face was heavy and didn''t say much. Li Ze left the doctor''s family because she was sad, and Li Ze didn''t go after him The dead are gone, can''t the living disappear without knowing it? Besides, it''s still in his hospital! Gu Beichen hurried to the ward and the eagle''s eyes crossed the hospital bed In that way, according to the routine, Mo''er got up by himself. Gu Beichen was not in a hurry to find Jian Mo, but his eyes were like a detector. After sharp across the ward, he looked at each place calmly. In my mind is everything here before leaving the ward. There is no trace of struggle... Or the mark left by inconvenient movement. If Mo''er didn''t leave voluntarily, then... The other party''s action force is obviously strong. Gu Beichen went to the hospital bed and opened the drawer Jane Mo''s mobile phone, which was originally put in it, is missing. There is an extra note. Pick it up and Gu Beichen looks at it with deep understanding Chen, if life will eventually disappear, what kind of way do people need to end it? I don''t know, I just know... I don''t want you to be embarrassed! Mo''er! Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes widened in an instant. This is Mo''er''s word... Did she wake up? Gu Beichen looked back at Su Junli and the nurse who were still standing at the door. "Did Mo''er leave by himself?" The nurse was stunned and quickly shook her head, "I looked at the monitoring, but I didn''t see..." Gu Beichen suddenly clenched his hand. While the note was held in his hand, he walked outside, "go and see the surveillance." "Oh!" The nurse was stunned and turned around quickly. At the right time, Li Yunze came up and looked after Beichen with a dignified face. Without asking, he went to the nurse station with him. Turn on the surveillance, and everyone''s eyes fall on it... The way their eyes stare is like they want to see through the surveillance video. "Stop!" Gu Beichen suddenly shouted. Li Yunze quickly pressed the pause button. People''s eyes fell on a shadow close to the wall and almost escaped from the dead corner of the monitoring. If they were not anxious to enter the staircase, I''m afraid this shadow could not be photographed. "Jane left by herself?" Li Yunze is obviously a little unbelievable, "I shouldn''t wake up so soon..." Although he was injected with drugs, they were only basic drugs. They couldn''t work so quickly... Unless they were fooled by pharmaceutical maniacs. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but took out his mobile phone and called Xiao Nan, "find me Jian Mo and use the fastest speed!" Xiao Nan was stunned and immediately understood, "I know..." she hung up and ordered to go down. "You go too..." Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen. "I''m here in the hospital... I think grandma Gu will understand." Gu Beichen nodded, then turned around and walked away with big steps Su Junli looks at Gu Beichen''s back. Although he doesn''t know what the recent scandal is, a voice tells him... Gu Beichen really loves Mo mo. those rumors have a secret. "Since you still love Mo Mo, why hurt her?" It was as if Jun Ze had left Su''s face at last. Li Yunze shrugged and his face was dignified. "It seems that it''s not suitable to talk about this at this moment..." he sighed lightly, "in short, fate makes people." Su Jun frowned slightly, and fate continued to ask. After all... Some things are really inconvenient for others to say. ¡­¡­ People outside are looking for the trace of Jian mo. whether Gu Beichen or the people under Long Xiao, they have started to spread in all directions with Huakang hospital as the center. On the Los Angeles River, on a fishing boat with the most common fishermen, there is an indicator light, which emits a faint light. "I''m afraid it''s all Gu Beichen''s people outside..." a soft voice came from the cabin of the black paint well, "find a way to lead away... Jane Mo must be taken away within an hour!" Chapter 480 The man standing beside Shi juechi frowned slightly, "juechi, I''m afraid it''s a little difficult..." Now Gu Beichen is not what he is worried about, but Qin Shao! Shi juechi glanced at the people around him. "Carney, I know what you''re worried about... But now I can only bet." "People have come. What else can I say?" Carney seemed dissatisfied. His thin body was weak in the dark light. "It''s just that it''s obviously impossible to rely on the two of us to really take Jian Mo away." "Nothing is impossible..." Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo in a coma and took out her mobile phone. Her slender fingers slid quickly on the screen and sent a text message. Mo''er: I always know that you have a bodyguard beside me. If you don''t want me to worry, I pretend I don''t know... Don''t look for me or force me. I just want to be alone. Looking at the short message of "Jian Mo", Gu Beichen''s cold face was full of haze. She knew he sent someone to follow her, so did she avoid bodyguards and surveillance when she left today? His Mo''er Gu Beichen closed his eyes and immediately dialed back. However, no one answered the phone He kept playing, and finally he was simply hung up. The text message came in again: ah Chen, do you have to force me to death? Gu Beichen is already confused: Mo''er, don''t do this, okay? where are you? I''ll find you... Let''s talk! You don''t want to go back to Zixiao, you can! Don''t hide from me, will you? Gu Beichen worried that Jian Mo would suddenly faint There are no acquaintances around her. What if she faints in the middle of the night? Shi juechi looked at Gu Beichen''s humble text message, and the center of his eyebrows had tightened up In my memory, I saw that stubborn boy in the castle that year. Even though he was forced to compromise occasionally, he never admitted defeat. A simple foam... Forced him to a desperate situation. Shi juechi didn''t reply and simply shut down. "Set sail..." Shi Juxi said faintly. Carney was stunned. "Where are you going?" "The shore nearest to the airport..." Shi Juxi made a quick decision. "The airport has arranged a private plane. Shaoqin won''t think we''ll go by civil aviation." Carney shrugged and agreed with Shi juechi and his brother''s familiarity with each other. However, because of familiarity, who is better... It''s hard to say! He didn''t worry at all. No matter what happened to Jian Mo in the end, Qin Shao won''t fight against him anyway. Kanila drove the motor and the boat. Fortunately, there are ships carrying sand and gravel or goods on the Los Angeles River in the middle of the night. They don''t appear abrupt. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen drove the car and looked for places where Jane Mo might go. One side contacted Xiao Nan and tried not to let go of every possible place. However, after looking for more than an hour in succession, I didn''t even see the shadow of people, let alone find people. Even the road controller near Huakang hospital didn''t find anything Gu Beichen has no doubt about Jian Mo''s intelligence The note with her notes and the text message with her tone dispelled Gu Beichen''s doubt that Jian Mo had been taken away. When the phone suddenly rang, Gu Beichen almost pressed the Bluetooth headset for the first time "Beichen, where are you?" Before Gu Beichen could speak, cen Lanxi''s voice came from the phone. "I''m looking for Mo''er..." Gu Beichen didn''t hide it. CEN Lanxi was furious when he heard this. "Grandma is gone. Your only grandson is not here. What''s it like?" She said angrily, "Jane Mo is so big, can you lose it?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep. "Mom, I don''t want to talk about this at the moment." CEN Lanxi breathed a few times, "OK, don''t talk if you don''t want to... Then tell me when you''ll be back?" "Grandma will understand..." Gu Beichen said indifferently, "Mom, I''m driving. Look back." Words fall, don''t give Cen Lanxi the opportunity to speak, Gu Beichen already hung up the phone. He knew grandma would go... When grandma suddenly woke up. I''m afraid it''s commonly known as "reflection"? He held everything in his hand and explained it to grandma before she left... He knew everything about his second uncle, just to make her feel at ease when she left. Cars, shuttling through the night in Los Angeles. Time passed, but there was no news of Jian mo. Just like such a person, suddenly disappeared from the world. The roller of the plane crossed the ground, and the last flight in Los Angeles took off at night... Climbed slowly under the flashing indicator light. Shi juechi looked at the word "La" through the small window and watched the red font gradually shrink until the fundus disappeared. "Never less," Carney looked at the magazine. "You said... Will chin Shao wait for us at the exit when we land?" "..." Shi juechi sank his face and looked at Carney. "If you are right by your crow''s mouth, I will consider sealing your mouth with a thread." Carney shrugged and said, "when are you going to give Jane Mo medicine?" "Silenceds is not the time yet..." Shi juechi frowned slightly. "Jane Mo should have not taken the last medicine. I''m afraid I won''t have much effect even if I give her silenceds." "Alas, this time... Is the time to reflect my ability." Carney suddenly sighed, closed the magazine and looked at Shi juechi. Shi juechi frowned slightly and saw him take out a medicine bottle from his pocket. "Worthy of being my think tank?" Shi juechi''s eyes lit up in an instant. Carney gave the medicine to Shi juechi, "but... Aren''t you afraid that Jane will come back when she wakes up?" "For the time being, let her ''disappear'' for a while..." Shi juechi had a worry on his face. "If the matter between Shaoqin and Gu Beichen is not solved one day, the fire... Will spread to Jian Mo sooner or later." Carney agreed, shrugged and stopped talking. Shi Jue Chi looked sideways at Jian Mo, who seemed to be sleeping, and sighed The plane soared in the dark sky, and the car flew on the streets of Los Angeles, forming the farthest distance and inaccessible. After midnight, when the bell rang, Gu Beichen''s phone rang again. "Beichen..." Chu Zixiao called, breathing slightly and his voice was tight. "My friend from the police station just called me and said... From..." he didn''t know whether he was too nervous or what. A famous mouth couldn''t say a complete sentence. "Say what?" Gu Beichen sank his eyes. "Say..." Chu Zixiao swallowed and just said, "said he received a report and found a body from the Los Angeles River... Look at the clothes, it seems foamy!" "Squeak -" Almost at the same time, Gu Beichen stepped on the brake and made a harsh and treacherous sound in the street at midnight. "Impossible!" Gu Beichen instinctively retorted, "suicide is not something Mo''er will do!" Chu Zixiao said, "I''m going that way... It''s the main bridge." "I''ll be right there!" Gu Beichen said that he had restarted the car, turned the front of the car and sped to the Los Angeles bridge Mo''er, don''t scare me! Don''t Chapter 481 ''didi... '' "Woo... Didi... Woo..." Late at night in Los Angeles after midnight, several police cars with flashing red and blue lights parked next to the Los Angeles bridge. On the Los Angeles River, firefighters in frogman clothes rise and fall, as if fishing for something. Chu Zixiao stood nervously by the river and looked at the firefighters with unblinking eyes. He wanted to jump down by himself ''squeak - '' The screeching sound of the brakes echoed on the bridge that was already tense to condensation. The left behind policeman looked back and saw Gu Beichen get off the car in a hurry. "Chen Shao..." the police officer headed by him walked past with big steps. Gu Beichen glanced at him and then walked to the side of the bridge, "what''s the situation?" "It hasn''t been salvaged yet..." the policeman said and paused. "Just received the alarm call, but the boatman saw it... Because it''s too dark and didn''t see it very clearly, he just described it roughly!" Gu Beichen glanced at the policeman, "how can you think it''s Jian Mo?" The corner of the police officer''s mouth twitched, "the media pay more attention to you and Miss Jane these days..." The implication is that the media has long reported to the public what Jane Mo is wearing today. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes suddenly gathered. After passing the police officer coldly, he turned and walked under the bridge The policeman swallowed uncontrollably. For Gu Beichen''s fierce glance, he only felt a cold knife across it. Hurriedly trotted after Gu Beichen. When the police caught up with Gu Beichen, he was already standing beside Chu Zixiao. "Beichen..." Chu Zixiao saw that it was Gu Beichen, as if a carrying heart finally had a sustenance. Gu Beichen glanced at him. There was no half expression on his cold face He won''t have any ideas without seeing people. "Salvaged..." Suddenly, someone shouted on the river. Just four words affect all the nerves waiting for people. Gu Beichen couldn''t even face it calmly. For a moment, he was resisting something. "Where is it?" The policeman waited for a long time and didn''t see a body coming up. He asked anxiously. "A mobile phone was salvaged..." the fireman roared again, and then saw a figure swimming over. Chu Zixiao subconsciously wanted to get it. Fortunately, the police responded quickly "Lawyer Chu, wait!" The policeman hurried forward, "you can''t touch it!" Chu Zixiao was a lawyer and immediately understood, "sorry, he''s in a hurry." The policeman twitched at the corner of his mouth and hurriedly took out the card collection bag to open it... After the fireman put the mobile phone in, he sealed his mouth and handed it to Chu Zixiao. "It''s Mo Mo''s mobile phone..." Chu Zixiao said, looking back at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen remained unchanged. "This mobile phone is not only available to Mo''er!" Chu Zixiao smiled at the corners of his mouth without refuting. It was just that something was eroding his nerves in his heart. Time, little by little I always know that waiting is because I can''t see the ending. At this moment, whether Gu Beichen or Chu Zixiao, there is only one idea... I don''t want the result to come. At least, if there is no result, it is a good result! But If God makes you happy, it means he took a nap at that time! "I got it..." A cry came from the river. This time, the four words completely made everyone hold their breath Chu Zixiao even closed his eyes and some resistance turned on his face. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were already deep, as if they were integrated with ink space. He looked at the river holding a corpse and swimming here. His eyes stared at him for fear of missing something at the first time The sound of the water brought several people ashore together. The police officer felt that the air was too thin to breathe. He swallowed and looked at Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao. The corners of his mouth moved back and forth several times. He was stunned and didn''t say a word. Gu Beichen took a breath and walked forward Looking through the searchlight over the firefighter''s head, it fell on the woman''s face Just for a moment, there was a bang, and a thunder exploded in Gu Beichen''s mind... At that moment, he had no way to think about it. "It''s impossible... It''s impossible..." Chu Zixiao''s breath has been disordered. He whispered several times before he looked at Gu Beichen uncertainly. "Beichen, you tell me... It''s fake! It''s fake -" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but his thin lips had become a line. "Send it to Huakang Hospital..." Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and squeezed every word out of his teeth, as if with great forbearance, "I want to do DNA comparison!" "Chen Shao, this..." the policeman was a little embarrassed. After all, whether it is suicide or homicide, it is necessary to take the body back to the legal evidence Department of the police station for testing. "Whoosh", Gu Beichen''s fierce eyes shot at the policeman. The policeman was immediately shocked and swallowed... But he was still in a dilemma. "Chen Shao, you see..." the policeman was about to cry. He didn''t think of anything wrong. After being exposed, he lost his job. Gu Beichen looked back coldly, "I''ll tell it... I''ll take care of any problem!" In a word, it''s indisputable. The police officer is not tangled. He can only look at Chu Zixiao and nodded hard. However, he didn''t intend to completely hand over the person to Gu Beichen... He just cleverly escorted the body to Huakang hospital with a police car. At night, the police car without the siren flickered red and blue, and drove quickly behind Gu Beichen''s car In the dark sky, the plane penetrated the clouds. In the distance, it seemed as if there was a light, which made it unclear whether it was day or night at the moment. "By no means, you lost Miss Jane''s cell phone into the river. Is it really useful?" Carney shook the red wine glass in his hand and drank it with a look of enjoyment. Shi juechi looked at the magazine with a small light on. "You can''t take it with you..." he flipped the page. "Besides, who knows if there is a tracking program installed by Gu Beichen in the mobile phone?" "You are so smart, do you know?" Carney put down his glass with a smile and looked at Shi juechi. Shi juechi sighed and turned his head to Carney''s eyes. "I really want to ask, can you be quiet for a while?" "..." Carney twitched at the corner of his mouth, "no!" He also shook his head seriously. Carney is a gentle type, a white-collar look... At the moment, his serious face always makes people feel a little cute. Shi Jue Chi Suo closed the magazine and threw it on the small table. "Carney, sometimes..." Shi Jue Chi paused, then looked at Carney with deep eyes and said seriously, "you always make me feel that you are an undercover agent sent by Shaoqin to me!" Carney shrugged with a smile and listened to his faint mouth: "it''s uncertain!" Chapter 482 Shi juechi smiled and said, "well, that''s just... I can let the sample finish Siyue later. Anyway, Siyue can''t be an undercover sent by Shaoqin." "Poof..." Carney sprayed at the moment, "never less, you''re cruel!" Shi juechi shrugged like Carney, but while the gentle smile on his face gradually converged, he said with worry: "now, what I''m most worried about is not whether Gu beichenxiang believes the information I left on my mobile phone, but what Shaoqin will do next!" The words fell, and his eyes fell in front of him, worried at the bottom of his eyes. Jian Mo''s "sleep" is still stable, as if the troubles in the world have nothing to do with her. Shi juechi looked at her... Her beautiful face had a pale color, and her short hair should have been pretty. Because it was not taken care of, it was a bit messy, with different lengths and decadent at the same time. Her understanding has only recently begun... Just know that this woman is very strong to bear all. Unfortunately, her road is still too long, too long! In the mysterious castle, there is a dark smell Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window, always dark in the open curtain. After the knock came, Morson pushed the door and came in. "Qin Shao, the body has been salvaged..." Mosen said calmly, "it is being sent to Huakang hospital." The corner of Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful mouth slightly hooked a shallow radian, and a pair of long and narrow Phoenix eyes showed a deep. "He doesn''t believe it..." Shi Shaoqin''s leisurely voice came out with a faint smile. Mosen glanced at Shi Shaoqin''s back. In fact, in the limited light coming in from the door, he only saw an imaginary shadow, "I''m afraid so..." After a pause, he continued, "after all, Jane Mo is not a person who will commit suicide!" "Just don''t know if Jue Chi left anything in Jian Mo''s mobile phone..." Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes, as if to murmur, "however, he is fighting with me... If you want me not to trace it, you must let Gu Beichen break his mind first." Morson didn''t answer. He just listened quietly. Shi Shaoqin raised his eyes and looked out of the window. "If Beichen really breaks his mind, this game will not be fun... Alas, it''s really tangled." Mosen lowered his eyes. For Shi Shaoqin''s sigh, only the soles of his feet were cold and his heart was hairy. "Let''s follow the original plan..." Shi Shaoqin turned and looked at morsen with light on his back. "See if his obsession is heavier than before." Morson raised his eyes. "Yes!" When he saw that Shi Shaoqin didn''t mean to speak any more, he saluted and turned away from the room. Close the door gently. The house was dark again. Shi Shaoqin likes such an environment. He doesn''t like light Because only in the dark can he see through everyone''s mind in the light! ¡­¡­ Late at night, Huakang hospital fell into unprecedented dignity. "What?" CEN Lanxi looked unbelievable, "you said Jane Mo jumped into the river and killed herself?" Gu Yuan nodded. "There are a lot of police cars outside. The bodies have been sent... The forensic medicine has also arrived and Yunze has passed." CEN Lanxi couldn''t react for a moment. Although she didn''t like Jian Mo, she died suddenly, and her brain was still a little empty. "How possible?" Gu CI frowned. "The little Jane I know is not a person who can commit suicide?" Because of Chu''s group, she has more contact with Jian mo "Who knows?" Gu Yuan shrugged and sneered. Gu CI frowned, and the grandmother left. If Jian Mo left like this... Beichen doesn''t know if he can accept it. "Go and see Sumer?" Gu Moyuan''s dignified face. Gu Yuan shrugged, "I just passed by, and the police are guarding it. Don''t let me pass..." Gu Moyuan''s eyebrows screwed together, "where''s Beichen?" "Over there..." Gu Yuan said, looking at Gu Ci and Chu tianqin. "Zixiao is also there." Gu Ci and Chu tianqin looked at each other and didn''t speak. The hospital''s temporary autopsy room. Li Yunze and the medical examiner jointly examined the situation of the body of "Jian Mo" After careful examination, the possibility of homicide has been ruled out. "See if there are drugs!" The medical examiner looked at Li Yunze. Li Yunze nodded. He didn''t believe that Jian Mo would commit suicide, but... If she was on the Los Angeles bridge and the drug attack occurred in her body, she couldn''t fall off. For a person who is in a coma, how to save himself? "I''ll test the DNA!" Out of respect for forensic medicine, Li Yunze said. The forensic doctor frowned slightly. "Does Dr. Li think she may not be... Not Jane Mo?" "Be on the safe side..." Li Yunze didn''t say much. And brother Gu Beichen, needless to say, they have a clear look in each other''s eyes. There is a gene sample of Jian Mo in Huakang hospital. Gu Beichen only needs to compare the body sample. The forensics nodded and didn''t stop... Just, as Li Yunze turned around after taking the sample, there was a strange light across his eyes. As time goes by Chu Zixiao had completely lost his calmness and paced back and forth outside, looking at several police officers'' eyes. Gu Beichen stood there with his hands in his pockets, without moving or talking from beginning to end. Xiao Jing''s face was dignified and there was no way to describe it. Only after receiving Xiao Nan''s phone call, he went to Gu Beichen, "Chen Shao, there is no news from Xiao Nan..." He plays the role of Xiao Nan. If there is news, then... At least he can breathe a sigh of relief. The person inside is not Mrs. Shao. But "Besides," Xiao Jing said heavily, "Xiao Nan said that someone saw Mrs. Shao staying on the bridge for a long time..." Gu Beichen narrowed his eagle eyes in an instant until it became a gap and suddenly opened it. Originally, the Shen Li inside also disappeared in an instant. It makes people think that the breath just for a moment is dazzled Gu Beichen still didn''t speak. He was waiting... For the result of Li Yunze. Chu Zixiao had leaned powerlessly against the wall, and despair gradually overflowed on his decadent face It was a kind of regret that was eroding all of him, and it was also a kind of regret that eroded his soul. "No, certainly not..." Chu Zixiao mocked himself and hung his mouth. His whisper voice couldn''t even convince him. The police officers looked at each other one by one. They were dazed that Gu Beichen was still full of gossip a few days ago, but now he was a fool''s face. However, how many things about rich families... Can people understand? The door of the examination room was opened in a dignified atmosphere, and everyone almost instinctively looked at it for the first time Li Yunze came out. He didn''t look at anyone, but his eyes fell on Gu Beichen. "What''s the result?" Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips. He couldn''t hear any emotion in his voice, but there was tension in the slightly gathered eagle eyes. Chapter 483 Li Yunze didn''t speak, but walked forward with a dignified face and handed the comparison result to Gu Beichen Gu Beichen slightly narrowed the eagle''s eyes, looked at him, and then took the comparison results and hung his eyes. He didn''t look at the front content, but his eyes fell on the final result Breathing began to be heavy, even messy. All calmness disintegrated at this moment, as if everything in the body had been evacuated in an instant. "What is the result?" Chu Zixiao didn''t dare to look and asked. His eyes were full of expectation, hoping for something to happen. Gu Beichen hung his hand powerlessly, and the paper fell He stepped back powerlessly. If Xiao Jing didn''t have quick eyes and quick hands, Li Yunze even felt that Gu Beichen would fall at this moment! Chu Zixiao''s breath was broken. He stared at Gu Beichen, and then his face turned pale and fell to the ground The paper with the result floated to the ground, and the eye-catching result became extremely dazzling in the light. "No... no... no......" Chu Zixiao shook his head and denied the result while losing his calmness. "How could this be... Impossible!" He hissed and looked at Gu Beichen. "Beichen, tell me... It''s fake, fake!" At the last sound, Chu Zixiao has collapsed His scarlet eyes were full of blood, and he gasped. Because he was too hard, his chest rose and fell. Everyone looked at Gu Beichen Chu Zixiao, Li Yunze, Xiao Jing, police officer... And the forensic medicine just came out. It seems that everyone is waiting for Gu Beichen''s negation... Or everyone is waiting for Gu Beichen''s response. "The test results came out..." the forensic medicine took the lead in interrupting such a repressive atmosphere, "basically excluding the possibility of homicide!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes condensed a sharp light and looked at the forensic, "then?" Then what is it? He knows very well... But at this moment, he asked. The person who has experienced many cases in the end said calmly: "there is a bruise on the waist, and there is no muscle tissue tension behind... Either his abdomen bumped against the railing when jumping down, or he accidentally fell and bumped." "Impossible..." Gu Beichen squeezed out his teeth word by word. "Mo''er won''t commit suicide!" Because no one can answer. Whether it will or not, now "Jianmo" is dead! At the right moment, the police officer''s mobile phone rang. He secretly swallowed and looked at Beichen. Then he turned to the other side to answer the phone "Ah? Really... OK, I see..." After the police officer hung up the phone, he hurried back, "Chen Shao, the mobile phone has been repaired, and there is a text message that has not been sent." Gu Beichen ''brushed'' his eyes and looked at the police officer fiercely. "That..." the officer twitched at the corners of his mouth and said hard, "you are... You are the family member of the deceased, so... Please go to the police station to confirm." Gu Beichen looked at the police officer with deep eyes and said nothing. After taking out the arm held by Xiao Jing, he dragged his legs like lead and walked out The police officer was stunned at first. He didn''t know what the situation was Then, he quickly explained to the forensic medicine and several police officers and hurried forward. "Li Shao..." Xiao Jing said. "I''m here." Li Yunze nodded. Xiao Jing nodded gratefully and followed Chu Zixiao. Outside, I don''t know when Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi came. Seeing Gu Beichen coming out, he hurried forward, "Beichen?" "Dad, mom..." Gu Beichen''s voice was indifferent. "I don''t want to say anything at the moment. Don''t ask anything!" Gu Moyuan frowned, "Beichen..." Gu Beichen tilted his head and looked at the two people. Finally, his eyes fell on Cen Lanxi''s face, "Mom, now... Are you happy?" There was a mockery in Qingyi''s voice. Gu Beichen coldly restrained his eyes and raised his feet to go out again The car was speeding in the late night of Los Angeles. Xiao Jing drove the car and looked at the two people in the back seat from the rearview mirror. His mood was momentarily depressed as if he had fallen to the bottom of the valley. Chu Zixiao and Gu Beichen sat left and right, respectively looking at the passing street view outside the window, as if... They were caught in a meeting between themselves and Jian mo. Have you no regrets at this point? Gu Beichen smiled with self mockery, which was more bitter than ever. Car, stop in the police yard. Almost at the same time, Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao opened the door and got off. In the police car, the police officer also came down and took several people into the evidence collection room. "Chen Shao..." the police officer signaled the police officer and shouted after recovering the mobile phone information. Gu Beichen looked sharply at the computer screen and saw a text message that was automatically stored in the draft box because it failed to send. "Ah Chen, if the end of life is destined to be my end, then... My last lowliness and cowardice are left for this moment! Love you, I am the only thing I want to do in my life, but I regret... However, seeing that you are so painful to embarrass myself, I prefer to leave with regret and cowardice." Chu Zixiao only felt that there was a completely fragmented roar in his head. If he didn''t believe Li Yunze''s comparison report at that time, he couldn''t find a reason for himself to say... Jian Mo hasn''t left yet! He closed his eyes sadly. Chu Zixiao felt that he had fallen into the abyss at that moment. He caused all this! It''s all him It''s all him! Chu Zixiao suddenly opened his eyes, turned and ran out The moment he turned around, his eyes were already red, as if bleeding was about to seep, and moisture was stored in the fundus of his eyes. "The forensic Department has compared the fingerprints of the mobile phone," the officer said in a heavy voice. "The fingerprints on it are only Miss Jane''s!" The implication is that it has ruled out the possibility of others sending text messages with Jianmo mobile phone Xiao Jing knows Jian Mo better. Such words are really like what Jian Mo said. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but the eagle eyes narrowed slowly... Until they became a gap, they opened in an instant. Turn around and leave without saying anything. Police officers and officers looked at each other and didn''t know how to react. Xiao Jing hurried up, "Chen Shao?" "Not Jane Mo!" Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and said. Xiao Jing was silent. He didn''t refute or say anything. Gu Beichen stood on the steps of the police station. His eyes were full of light that people couldn''t understand. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing was sad and wanted to persuade Gu Beichen. However, he found that he, who had always been sharp mouthed, couldn''t speak. "How could it be her?" Gu Beichen''s voice was hollow and desolate, so people couldn''t hear whether they didn''t accept the fact or resisted to accept, "it''s not her!" Chapter 484 "Chen Shao, Mrs. Shao, she..." Xiao Jing wanted to say that Mrs. Shao really left, but she couldn''t say anything. Gu Beichen slowly turned and looked at Xiao Jing, "what kind of person do you think Jane Mo is?" Xiao Jing was slightly stunned. He didn''t know what Gu Beichen was asking at this moment. Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing with a pair of sharp eyes, waiting for his answer Seeing that Gu Beichen was serious, Xiao Jing gently moved his sideburns and said, "young lady attaches great importance to emotion and reason... She knows what she wants, knows her identity and status, and puts her position right at any time... Whether it''s those two years or now." Gu Beichen listened quietly, without any expression change on his face. Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth, as if he thought of something, and hurriedly said, "young lady sometimes seems to care nothing, but she pays attention to the people she cares about all the time... The most important thing is that you can feel the warmth she brings inadvertently." "Does she care about Jay?" Gu Beichen asked. Xiao Jing suddenly widened his eyes... It is estimated that the two people Jane Mo cares about most now are Gu Beichen and young master Xiaojie? No doubt! Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, "but the last ''dying'' message, she only mentioned me, not Xiaojie!" "Yes..." Xiao Jing said suddenly, "according to the character of young lady, the last... It''s impossible not to mention young master Jie!" "It''s not Jian Mo, at least..." Gu Beichen paused slightly, and his eyes were already gloomy, "... The SMS was not Jian Mo''s!" Xiao Jing stopped talking, whether it was Jian Mo''s text message or not... But she was the one who died! At most... Suicide becomes homicide. What if we find the killer? Jane can''t live It seems that Gu Beichen knows this problem clearly, so that there is a cold breath under the empty ink space. ¡­¡­ After more than five hours of flight, Carney drove for nearly two hours. When he finally stopped in a deep mountain, it was already dawn. Shi juechi gently put Jian Mo on the bed, looked at her increasingly pale face and sighed gently. "Where''s the medicine?" Shi Juxi looked back and asked. Carney came over with a glass of water and medicine. "Here!" Seeing that Shi juechi took it, Carney continued, "but never less... Are you sure this pill is OK?" "You have to eat if you have any problems!" Shi juechi sighed, "I know Shaoqin''s way of doing things... This medicine will have side effects after taking it, but if you don''t take it... Jianmo will be more hurt!" Carney shrugged his shoulders and leaned his arms around his chest on one side of the post. "I''m afraid this medicine will be useless!" Carney curled his mouth. Shi Jue Chi glared at Carney, "when can you spit out an ivory for me, you dog?" "By no means, don''t you embarrass my dog mouth?" Carney raised his eyebrows. Shi Juxi snorted coldly and said nothing, but put the medicine into the water But in an instant, the medicine completely melted into the water and disappeared without a trace. "Bring a rubber tipped dropper..." Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo and said. Carney got up to look for it and brought it in a moment. Jane Mo is in a coma at the moment. It''s obviously unrealistic for her to drink water with a water cup. She can only inject it a little bit with a rubber tipped dropper When all the water dissolved in the medicine was injected into Jianmo''s mouth, the East had begun to shine. The morning light penetrated the dense trees with the power of a new day and fell on the small but quiet manor. Shi Jue Chi covered Jian Mo with a quilt and left the bedroom slightly tired "Someone has to come and take care of her." Shi juechi was a little embarrassed. Outsiders are worried about him, but the only person suitable is Xiao Siyue... However, if you transfer Siyue, will Shaoqin find out? "I don''t know why, I always think Qin Shao knows..." seeing Shi juechi''s worry, Carney said very dismissively. Shi juechi looked at Carney with a touch of anger on his warm face. "Don''t look at me like that..." Carney said he was innocent. "I just don''t know why. I always feel that there are two eyes around." Shi Jue frowned as he paused. Carney smiled. "Don''t worry, I checked and made sure there was no one around." Then he sighed, "you''ve arranged people to this place where dogs don''t shit and birds don''t lay eggs... Even if Qin Shao knows anything, he can''t find it for a while." Never like to be clean, or even have a mania for cleanliness. It''s hard for Jane mo First, take people to fishing boats, even if they are in company with places full of fishy smell... Finally, take people to the mountains outside, which can be said to be slums. Qin Shao wants to find someone. He promises... It''s impossible in recent days. ¡­¡­ The morning sun fell gently on the sponge and sparkled with the sea breeze. Shi Shaoqin stood by the sea with his hands in his pockets, looking at the gentle waves, and his narrow Phoenix eyes showed a touch of deep meaning. The mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. Shi Shaoqin took it out indifferently, looked at the call and picked it up. "Qin Shao," the voice of the person opposite hesitated, "never lose it." Shi Shaoqin''s good-looking corners of his mouth were slightly touched with a thin smile. Such a smile, soft and beautiful, was as hopeful as the dawn. "He knows me so well that he can''t be unprepared..." Shi Shaoqin said proudly, "don''t worry," he lowered his eyes and turned around. "He has medicine in his hand... Maybe it''s appropriate for him to feed." The opposite side was silent for a while, and then shivered coldly. Shi Shaoqin''s kindness to Shi juechi is clear to all the people in the ink palace... But what Shi Shaoqin hates most is betrayal! After hanging up the phone, Shi Shaoqin went under the umbrella and a servant had brought coffee. After drinking, the bitter taste stimulates the taste buds and moves the nerves He had warned Juxi not to try to do anything. The consequences are beyond his ability. If he didn''t want to save Jian mo... Maybe the game would be simpler. Shi Shaoqin looked at the front with deep eyes and a shallow smile on his mouth. Lead off the bodyguard, cover juechi and take Jianmo... Then implant a person disguised as Jianmo in the surveillance, trying to steal away from the surveillance. Finally... When juechi wants to understand Gu Beichen''s thoughts, he leaves his unsent SMS and mobile phone to the Los Angeles River... He helps juechi leave a more favorable body. Everything will only be more interesting. Chen, the DNA test report of the comparison results has been changed. Do you believe it? Chapter 485 "According to reliable sources, the body was fished out of the Los Angeles River last night... It was the body of a woman!" Los Angeles TV morning news host''s face solemnly broadcast, "and this woman''s body is likely to be the wife of the president of emperor group, Jane Mo!" "Jane mo of the female corpse Department said that it was wildly spread. For specific matters, our reporter is going to the city police station to understand the specific matters..." "According to the news, all the Gu family members appeared in Huakang hospital yesterday... It''s not just about Jian Mo, but the legendary Gu Family Parent Cui Bihua died last night! Old lady Gu has a legendary life, which has nothing to do with her marrying into a rich family. She was born in a famous family and once served as the commander of a group army..." "The death of old lady Gu and the strange drowning of Jane Mo leave too many doubts about the death one after another..." "Whether it is related to the family''s seizure of power or the recent scandal of Chen Shao needs attention!" "According to informed sources, Gu muhuai never appeared from the beginning to the end from her admission to the hospital to her death... It may be related to the emperor''s shareholders'' meeting." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The news is just like the explosion. Either grandma Gu''s death or Jian Mo''s "falling into the river"... No matter which one, it has caused a sensation in Los Angeles. "How could this happen..." looking at the mobile phone at night, I sobbed and whispered, and tears fell down in an instant. Mu Xiaoran clutched his hands fiercely, and his scarlet eyes were full of anger Sadness shrouded the air. Such a sharp turn of the plot made people who were friends with Jane Mo or not dignified one by one. Mu Xiaoran forbeared. Finally, he turned around and walked out "Xiaoran, what are you doing?" Mo Xiaoya shouted quickly. Mu Xiaoran didn''t speak, until Daxiong and Mo Xiaoya had the same mind and hurriedly stopped her. "Get out of the way..." Mu Xiaoran said angrily after he couldn''t get out for several times. Daxiong sighed, "Xiaoran, you have no right." "What if you don''t?" Mu Xiaoran immediately cried, "sister Mo is fine. He promised... Why? Why do you say you love, or say you don''t love..." She cried and roared, and immediately shrouded the already sad air with more grief. "Sister Mo is a strong person?" Mu Xiaoran cried and said, "what kind of harm can she do to be loveless? You say, you say -" The big bear frowned. He couldn''t answer his question. Even after going through things like that more than four years ago, Jane Mo was strong to face... But this time she committed suicide The position of the heart is like pressing a stone, so everyone can''t breathe. Luo Xiaojing looked at Yu Ziyun opposite and sneered, "men are not a thing!" "Wife..." Yu Ziyun said bitterly, "you can''t overturn a boat with one pole." "Bah me!" Luo Xiaojing snorted coldly, "how can you take care of Beichen more than you? Isn''t this virtue? Yu Ziyun, I''m just looking at your men''s disgust at the moment..." Yu Ziyun thinks it''s better to talk less now... But if a woman is unreasonable, it''s wrong whether you say it or not. "Why, stop talking? Can''t refute?" Luo Xiaojing sneered, "I used to marry Jian Mo for the emperor''s shares. Now I marry Jian Mo as a gesture of love in order to get grandma Gu''s trust... Not all for the shares." Speaking of this, Yu Ziyun was powerless to refute and could only sigh. The media didn''t know how to dig it out. They said that Gu Beichen and Jian Moyin married before because they wanted to get the shares that Gu master had in Gu mohuai''s hand, because the condition was to get married. This time, the show of such love is entirely to let Grandma Gu come forward and persuade those scattered shareholders to support him Therefore, after crossing the river and tearing down the bridge, grandma Gu was overwhelmed by Gu Beichen''s anger. If that''s true, I can only say... He always thinks he looks at people very well and is blind! "I still think there''s something strange..." Yu Ziyun said seriously. "Gu Beichen is a deep man. Even if you and I have little contact, you can also hear and know a lot... Xiaojing, do you think a person like him will leave so many criticisms?" Luo Xiaojing sat on the chair angrily, hummed coldly and didn''t speak. We are all adults, and we are all mixed up in shopping malls... Some things are angry, but if we think about them carefully, we will naturally understand them. A mass of public opinion poured on Gu Beichen. For a time, the image of slag man seemed to pour out to the people who didn''t know why. Chen Xuan started all the public relations of Huaye, but he couldn''t control the overwhelming public opinion. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing frowned at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen stood in front of the window and didn''t move, just like a sculpture... His sight fell on a point outside and didn''t move. Xiao Jing and Susan looked at each other, gritted their teeth and said, "Chen Shao, we need to start emergency public relations... Otherwise..." "Pass it on!" Gu Beichen opened his mouth lightly and said softly, "give grandma a funeral tomorrow..." "Well..." Xiao Jing hesitated and asked, "where''s the young lady?" "No hair!" Xiao Jing and Susan looked at each other again, "but..." Gu Beichen slowly turned around, with a dark color on his cold, carved face, "Xiao Jing, I don''t believe Mo''er left like this." "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing wanted to say something. She was pulled down her sleeve by Susan and swallowed it back. "It''s not that I don''t accept the reality." Gu Beichen''s voice is very calm, so people can''t hear his mood at the moment. "It''s just that I can''t figure out some doubts." "The young lady''s body..." Susan looked at Xiao Jing. "I''ll arrange it." "No." Gu Beichen said coldly, "Yunze will deal with..." paused, "the public opinion outside is not enough." As soon as these words fell, both Xiao Jing and Susan frowned one after another. Some couldn''t understand Gu Beichen''s ideas. Gu Beichen didn''t explain, but said calmly, "go to do grandma''s funeral..." Xiao Jing''s lips moved and wanted to say something, but he still held back and nodded. Susan and Xiao Jing went out of the office together. They could only sigh for the dignified atmosphere of the whole emperor building. "I was so confident by Chen Shao''s fans that I felt that the person who fell into the water was not Mrs. Shao..." Susan murmured. Xiao Jing frowned and looked at Susan. "We all hope Mrs. Shao is still alive, but..." he laughed at himself and pulled down the corner of his mouth, "... DNA comparison report can''t deceive people." The most important thing is that this report was written by Li Yunze himself Chapter 486 Gu Beichen looked at the bright sunshine outside, but his whole body felt cold. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips, and his sad voice gently overflowed. "If I deceive myself and others, the ending is too sad for me... Do you understand?" Gu Beichen closed his eyes. He had not slept well for many days. He had been unable to cover up his fatigue. After grandma Gu''s departure, after "Jian Mo''s" departure... The original resolute pine that seemed unable to fall down finally decayed its branches and leaves. The chirping of birds is like the most harmonious and graceful song of nature, echoing around, making people comfortable to want one to indulge in it. Jane Mo frowned slightly, and then slowly opened her eyes. The harsh light made her eyes hurt, and she closed them again at the moment she opened them. After a while, she felt she could adapt, and then slowly opened it again "Ah!" When Jian Mo looked at the person in front of her, she was completely unprepared and sat up with a scream. Carney rolled his eyes. Although he was not handsome, he was a gentle man, right? It''s not a dinosaur, Jane mo. what''s the expression? "You, who are you?" Jane Mo widened her eyes and subconsciously stepped back. Carney put his arms around his chest, joked in his eyes, and said coldly, "it doesn''t matter who I am..." he smiled. "What matters is, what will I do to you?" Then he put down his hand and put his leg on the bed... His eyes were full of the light of bath hope. Jane Mo was shocked. Before she could even think about why she appeared here, she had fallen into the nightmare of the man in front of her. "You... What do you want to do?" Jane Mo swallowed it secretly, so she pretended to be calm. However, the physical tension has betrayed her. Looking at Kani, he thought it was fun to climb forward again Jian Mo subconsciously retreated, but the person was already on the bedside. As soon as she retreated, the person immediately fell back "Ah..." Carney widened his eyes, grabbed Jane Mo''s wrist with quick eyes and hands, and forced her back. Jane Mo gasped with fright and stared at Carney. "If you really want to do something to you, can you still be here?" Carney sneered and got up. "Boring!" Jane Mo''s eyes widened, "who the hell are you?" She looked around. "Where is this?" She said, frowning. Why didn''t she mention it here... But she didn''t seem to remember where she was before? The fear of the unknown instinctively came up, and there was a resistance overflow in his eyes. Kani just appreciated Jian Mo''s expression. No wonder Qin Shao likes to control human nature so much... In fact, it''s really interesting to watch their changes. Just when the confrontation in the bedroom was imminent, the door was suddenly opened Jian Mo instinctively ''brushed'' and looked. When she saw Shi juechi coming in, her pupils dilated. "Is that you?" Jane Mo was stunned. She frowned and looked at Shi Juxi with a smile in her mouth. "You..." she looked at Carney again and stopped talking. Shi juechi also looked at Carney. As soon as he came in, he saw Jane Mo in a state of full alert. You don''t have to think about what Carney did. "I didn''t do anything!" Carney shrugged with a smile. "It''s just that she has a misunderstanding. I''ll just..." "Boring." Shi juechi gave him a helpless look. Carney continued to shrug and saw Jane''s angry look, the corners of her mouth cracked, "I''ll have someone prepare a meal." After that, he whistled with Jane Morse and left. Jian Mo is not in a state. She has doubts in her heart and doesn''t speak. She just looks at Shi Juxi. Shi juechi sat down on one side. "I think you''re going to wake up. Let Carney come and have a look... If he offends you, I apologize for him." Warm words make people bathe in the spring breeze, as if no matter how nervous, the nerves become relaxed at this moment. "Where is this?" Jane Mo asked suspiciously, "why am I here?" Shi Jue Chi frowned invisibly, "no memory at all?" Jane Mo drooped her eyes and pondered, "I remember I should be in the villa in the middle of the mountain..." she said hesitantly. "Yes..." Shi Jue Chi smiled, "but it''s a little far from the mid level villa." This "a little" when Jane Mo knew, she realized that it was not a little far away. "Why am I here?" Jane asked again, her eyes alert. Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo and smiled, "I kidnapped you." Jian Mo instantly widened her eyes and looked at Shi juechi seriously joking, and the corners of her mouth twitched. "You are really my captive..." Shi juechi restrained his smile, "because I advise you to leave Gu Beichen... But if you don''t listen, I can only act by myself." "Did you send that anonymous message?" Jane Mo was surprised by the question, but it was obviously certain. Shi Juxi nodded, "well, I sent it..." "It''s not a coincidence to appear in Junli concert. You''re going for me!" Jane Mo said with certainty again. Shi Juxi nodded with a smile, "Hmm!" "Why do you have to do it?" Jane Mo was a little short of breath. "I don''t know you, do I?" She frowned, "or do you know Gu Beichen?" Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo and pricked his whole body like a small beast ready to fight. "Or are you trying to make me threaten him?" Jane Mo sneered, "Oh, don''t be paranoid... Didn''t you read the report? He doesn''t love me at all..." Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo nervously, and his eyes were deep, "Jian Mo, do you know?" Jane Mo frowned "At any time, don''t let your emotions control you..." Shi juechi sighed softly. "In that way, you will easily let people seize your weaknesses. Especially... In the face of the unknown, you need to show no performance." Jian Mo''s eyebrows wrinkled deeper, and she always felt that Shi juechi had something to say. Shi Jue Chi smiled warmly, "I won''t use you to threaten Gu Beichen. I won''t bring you here to hurt you..." He said and stood up. "There are clothes in the cabinet. You can wash and come out to eat." He put his hand on the doorknob, looked back at Jane Mo in a confused state, smiled, opened the bedroom door and wanted to leave. "Wait!" The voice came from behind in a hurry. "Huh?" Shi juechi stopped and looked back. Jane Mo got out of bed barefoot. "Do you want to lead ah Chen to me?" Shi Juxi smiled and shook his head. "Gu Beichen should think... You''re dead now!" "What?" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she stared in amazement, "what do you mean I''m dead?" Chapter 487 Just before coming in, Shi juechi watched the news in La All over the world is the news that old lady Gu and Jane Morse died the same night! He threw his mobile phone into the river because he planned to turn back and give Gu Beichen a guide to salvage... After restoring the text message, whether he believed that Jian Mo died or not, it was a moment of deception, which was very beneficial to him. However, the body appeared... It was still the body of "Jian Mo", which was too strange. If there was a coincidence before, someone jumped into a river to commit suicide, he can understand. However, if everyone thinks it''s Jianmo, it''s strange There are only two possibilities First, Gu Beichen deliberately released the news to people who want to lead and control pharmaceuticals. Second... Shaoqin knew what he was doing from the beginning. If it is the latter, should he think of countermeasures? After Shi juechi''s momentary thoughts changed, he looked at his Jian Mo suspiciously and smiled lightly, "isn''t this... The result you want?" Jian Mo was stunned and then reacted Yes, she''s going to leave. She doesn''t even want Gu Beichen to find her. Even if the possibility is very small She doesn''t want Gu Beichen to be embarrassed, let alone die in front of him... She doesn''t want to live in sadness at the last moment. But "How do you know what I''m thinking?" Jane Mo suddenly became calm. "Even, why did you persuade me to leave Beichen?" "What do you think?" Shi juechi did not answer the rhetorical question. Jane Mo frowned. "Don''t tell me you''re the one who drugged me!" Shi juechi smiled. "No..." he paused. "I just know you''ve been drugged." Jane Mo didn''t speak, just looked at Shi Jue Chi. As if he had seen through her mind, Shi juechi smiled and said, "naturally, you will wake up because I gave you the last medicine..." "What are you talking about?" Jane Mo suddenly burst the surprise of hope in her eyes, as if her nervous heart stopped at that moment. "Don''t be happy too early..." Shi juechi restrained his smile. "It''s not that you take the last medicine and your body will be fine... Or, it should be that you wake up and the war has just begun." Jane Mo looked at Shi Jue Chi puzzled, "what do you mean?" "I haven''t confirmed some things, so I can''t answer you..." Shi juechi said slowly, "it''s just... If I were you, I wouldn''t be dazzled by surprises and do some exciting things." The ambiguous words made Jian Mo fall into confusion under ignorance. Shi juechi didn''t explain anything and went out of the bedroom. Because the manor is at the foot of the mountain, the singing of birds everywhere has become a unique music, which makes people particularly relaxed under the sun with lush branches and leaves. However, Shi juechi and Carney are not relaxed at the moment. "Never less..." Carney was a little breathless. Shi juechi sighed, "I still don''t know Shaoqin all the time..." "What''s next?" Carney asked, frowning. Shi juechi didn''t speak, but his cell phone rang. He picked it up, saw it was a small sample, and picked it up, "huh?" "Never less, Qin Shao asked me to bring you a word..." the sample''s voice was wilting. Shi juechi was not surprised at all. When the body of "Jian Mo" appeared, he had a hunch... All this was a game set by Shaoqin. "Say!" The little sample was bitter and didn''t know what to say. Shi Jue frowned when Chi Dun said, "speak well..." "Qin Shao said that you didn''t listen to the original warning..." the little sample''s voice was heavy, "said you were overdrawing his trust and kindness to you. Let you take care of yourself..." Although he already knew the result, Shi juechi was still depressed and sad when he heard it. Slowly put down his hand, but he didn''t care. The phone hasn''t hung up yet. Shi juechi laughed enough at the corners of his mouth... The sun fell on his face through the branches and leaves, which was a little depressing. He picked up the phone again and put it in his ear. "From the beginning, he didn''t trust me... We can only say that we are each other!" ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen is standing in Spencer''s campus. From a distance, he is standing under a tree and looking at a small figure in a certain direction. In an instant, his nose is sour and leaves Jian Jie seemed to feel someone looking at him and instinctively looked in the direction Far away, the eyes of father and son collided in the sun, unspeakably complex, and a trace of indifference under resentment. Jian Jie took back his sight, turned around with resentment on his small face and walked to the other side Gu Beichen frowned slightly and took a big step... The meteor caught up with him. A child, an adult, just the distance of steps is doomed to be caught up... Besides, Jian Jie is complicated at the moment and doesn''t want to see Gu Beichen. After a big time, he confronted each other like this, and no one spoke. But Jian Jie is a child after all. No matter how smart he is, he has lost a lot of momentum. "What did you promise me?" Like the little beast to fight, Jane Jie was blown up all over. However, as soon as he finished speaking, his small nose was sour and his eyes turned red. Gu Beichen slowly squatted down and held Jian Jie in his arms without saying anything "You let go of me, you let go of me..." Jian Jie twisted desperately in Gu Beichen''s arms, and his tears overflowed at a stroke. "You let go of me... You are a bad man, you return my Mommy... Sobbing... You return my Mommy..." Gu Beichen''s eyes were already red. He closed his eyes painfully and clenched his teeth to prevent his emotions from leaking out. "I don''t want Daddy... I want mommy!" Jian Jie seemed to instantly release her child''s willfulness, "I shouldn''t want Daddy, so... Mommy at least has uncle to leave, at least won''t get involved in your disputes. You... Wuwu... You return my Mommy... I want mommy... Wuwu..." Jian Jie''s cry rubbed Gu Beichen''s heart like a barb. When he moved, it hurt his heart. "I want mommy..." Jane Jie sobbed. He kept repeating this sentence and cried more and more sadly. When he saw the news in the morning, he thought everything was a prank... But the overwhelming news filled him as if to tell him it was true! Grandma died, too. Before he even had time to be sad, he found that mommy had left Sobbing The more Jane and Jay thought about it, the more sad he was. He was out of breath crying. "I''m sorry..." Gu Beichen said, gritting his teeth. Three words are heavier than the mountain. "I don''t want to be sorry... Sobbing..." Jian Jie suddenly began to struggle again. He didn''t know whether he used great strength or Gu Beichen didn''t notice. He pushed him away. Jane''s eyes were red and his tears'' rustled ''down. He stared at the black pupil, "I hate you..." he roared, "I hate you!" Chapter 488 Jane Jie clenched her little hand. There was no need to hide the hatred in her eyes, and there was no way to hide it. "Mommy is dead..." Jane Jie cried and accused, "I don''t want you... You return my mommy!" Gu Beichen closed his eyes. No matter how much explanation, he became powerless at this moment. "Xiao Jie..." Gu Beichen opened his eyes and looked at Jian Jie. "If I say... It''s not your mommy who died, do you believe me?" "I''ll never trust you again... No!" Jane Jie gritted her teeth and turned around crying. The little figure also stirred because of sobbing. After taking a few steps, he seemed to have lost his direction and stood in place Gu Beichen came forward distressed and squatted down in front of Jian Jie again. When his little face was full of tears, at that moment, he never regretted. If life comes again, should he and Jane Mo say... From beginning to end, he shouldn''t provoke her again? However, life cannot come back, and there is no if. "Daddy, is Mommy really not dead?" Jian Jie asked as if floating on the sea, holding the last straw. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at Jian Jie deeply, "I''m not sure, but... I have doubts about this matter." Jane Jie fanned her eyelashes, which were full of tears. "Can I still believe you?" He asked with a choking voice, which was full of hope under fear and resistance. "Will you trust me again?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer the question. Jian Jie shook his head, "I don''t know..." his tears flowed down again, "I don''t want mommy to leave, but... Mommy said that people can''t hold unrealistic dreams, which will only magnify the disappointment countless times..." Gu Beichen frowned. At this moment, he didn''t know how to comfort Jian Jie... Because he couldn''t even comfort himself. That kind of weakness swept through all nerves. Jane Jie chuckled and hesitated. Finally, Haohao put his arm around Gu Beichen''s neck, whimpered and said, "Daddy, this is the last time I believe you... You must let mommy live..." Gu Beichen didn''t answer. He just hugged Jane Jie tightly and closed his eyes painfully. The whole city of Los Angeles is in a state of sadness As the wind vane of Los Angeles, the Emperor Group will attract people''s attention if there is any disturbance. Besides... Last night, two housewives, old and young, died in Los Angeles. However, when the media received the news that Gu Beichen only held a funeral for grandma Gu, the people were stunned. "Paralyzed," Mu Xiaoran directly dumped the newspaper and scolded, "Gu Beichen killed sister Mo and didn''t give her soul to leave, did he?" Xiang night was so angry that he directly clenched his hand, "Oh, I can''t stand it..." "Little night, go!" Mu Xiaoran raised his eyebrows and motioned. "Go!" After talking impulsively to the evening, he went out with mu Xiaoran. "Stop!" Just walked to the elevator entrance and saw the elevator arrive. Tang Haoyang coldly stopped them. "Director?" Stamp your feet in the evening. Tang Haoyang looked at Xiangwan and mu Xiaoran. "What''s your identity to question about Gu Beichen''s family?" He snorted coldly, "besides, can you see others now?" Mu Xiaoran and Xiang night looked at each other and vented their anger one after another. Tang Haoyang sighed, "no matter how angry we are, we have no position!" As colleagues, they need to be concerned. However, if Gu Beichen is questioned, it seems that his name is not right and his words are not right However, in this world, there is such a person who can be justified. With a cold face, Jian Chang punched Gu Beichen. While Gu Beichen easily dodged, Xiao Jing already stepped forward with an arrow step to block Jian Chang''s action. There are media in the periphery. While they are amazed at Jian Heng''s actions, they are even more surprised... Xiao Jing, an assistant, has such a good skill. "Gu Beichen, you killed my parents and now my sister..." Jian Heng stared. "You used her feelings and finally forced her to death... I won''t let you go!" "Wow..." Suddenly, there was an uproar in the crowd. The media kept pressing the shutter reflectively, and the cameras were surrounded between Jian Heng and Gu Beichen, holding microphones one by one, trying to dig up big news. "Mr. Gu Heng, what do you mean by this?" Some media reporters have yelled. Gu Heng is Gu mohuai''s adopted son. He first moved into JK in an attempt to disintegrate JK from the emperor and let everyone know What he heard in private, but he didn''t receive it in his ear. Jian Heng ignored the media and just stared at Gu Beichen coldly. "Since the Bank of Yujing lake, my Jane family has been fragmented by you... Gu Beichen, when you cheated my sister to marry you in exchange for imperial shares, didn''t you have a nightmare?" The media listened in surprise one by one. Was the news this morning true? Gu Beichen stood in the setting sun, and the soft radiance plated a layer of wave halo around him, with coldness and arrogance. He didn''t speak, but looked at Jian Heng coldly... It was like watching a clown performing. "This time you use Xiaomo to win grandma''s trust, and kill grandma and Xiaomo..." Jian truss gnashed his teeth, as if his emotions were broken, and roared, "Gu Beichen -" Gu Beichen walked forward indifferently, pushed Xiao Jing away, and suddenly Bang down! "Hissing" inverted sound came one after another. Jian truss was hit by a punch and staggered to one side for a few steps before he stopped. The corners of his mouth were skinned by chromium teeth, and the fishy sweet smell like rust spread around his mouth "This punch is for Mo''er!" Gu Beichen''s cold voice was full of the breath of death, "Jane truss, I''ll settle this account with you sooner or later!" He didn''t speak any more, but just walked forward. Xiao Jing hurried forward and opened the door. When Gu Beichen got on the car, he looked back at Jian truss and went to the driver''s seat. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing said in a dignified voice, "go to the hospital?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered. Grandma Gu''s body will be cremated later. As a grandson, he naturally wants to be there. Just He didn''t go to the hospital to attend to grandma''s cremation. Take out the mobile phone, Gu Beichen takes out the phone card, takes out a new phone card from his pocket and inserts it. After changing the card, he immediately called Li Yunze "Are you ready?" Gu Beichen asked. Li Yunze looked at the body of "Jian Mo" and said, "ready... When will you arrive?" "Half an hour later..." Gu Beichen''s eyes narrowed slightly, and a cold and sharp light came from the bottom of his eyes. Chapter 489 Xiao Jingqu drove his car all the way to Huakang hospital and occasionally looked back in the rearview mirror Gu Beichen Junyan is always indifferent, so people can''t see his mood at the moment. Slightly tilt your head and look at the street view of Los Angeles under the sunset... Gu Beichen regrets a lot at the moment. Never accompanied her well, never seriously gave her the most ordinary romance I haven''t had time to take her on a trip, even... I haven''t learned how to cook. I made her a delicious food that she cherished and cooked from his hands. People can have so many regrets. "Beichen, when people''s life comes to an end, don''t let your life leave too many regrets..." that night, grandma said to him, "looking back on life, grandma also has regrets, but on the whole, she is worthy of heart... Because I adhere to what I adhere to." Gu Beichen took back his sight and watched the car turn into Huakang hospital. Many media were blocked outside and were stopped by the security guard of the hospital. Gu Beichen ignored everyone''s "enthusiasm", got out of the car indifferently under the flash, and walked in with one hand. Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi looked at each other when they saw Gu Beichen coming, "Beichen..." "I want to give grandma the last ride..." Gu Beichen said calmly, without any tone, without looking at everyone in the family. "Can you all go out?" "Time is fast..." Gu Moyuan sighed and said, "OK!" He looked at the crowd and motioned. Everyone nodded heavily and went out of the morgue where Grandma Gu''s body was parked. Lu Chen, who was standing near the door, just looked at Lu Chen, and then left. The morgue was quiet, with the smell of death under the cold. Huakang is a senior private hospital. Most people who come here to see a doctor are either rich or expensive. In order to show their status, there are many independent morgues like this There was a slight sound, and behind the white curtain, there was a sound of "stabbing Lala" one after another. Gu Beichen walked over and lifted the curtain... In time, a piece of the wall flew out. He let the front of the block fall to the ground. Li Yunze''s head came out from inside. "I knew there was today. I should have made several tunnels under the mortuary." "Let go!" Gu Beichen coldly spilled a word. Li Yunze shrugged his shoulders and retreated back... Just as he was shooting the soil, Gu Beichen had drilled over there. Obviously, they are two big men who dominate Los Angeles. At the moment, they are getting a little disheartened one by one. "In fact, you can not come here..." Li Yunze said teasingly, "just give me the sample." Gu Beichen glanced at him coldly, and handed a transparent bag to Li Yunze from his pocket, "I need to look at it to rest assured..." Not worried about Yunze, but when a person seriously faces something, he will ignore some details. He can''t tolerate any accident. As a brother, Li Yunze naturally understood Gu Beichen''s idea. He nodded and went with the sample. He had been arranged to go to the instrument in the "Jianmo" morgue last night. Not too much space, the cold breath shrouded Gu Beichen''s body. No matter whether the person lying is Jian Mo or not, he doesn''t dare to look at that face more ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin gracefully took a knife and fork and ate delicious food at the top of the long table. The servant on one side put the exquisite food in front of and behind him, and silently stepped aside. On the table, every kind of food is very exquisite, with an attractive aroma. Shi Shaoqin is a person with extreme personality. For such a person... Everything must be perfect. Footsteps came Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin and saw that he was eating. Instead of coming forward, he waited quietly until he put down his knife and fork, picked up his napkin and wiped the corners of his mouth. "Qin Shao..." Morson came forward and said, "Gu Beichen entered Huakang hospital half an hour ago... Will take Mrs. Gu''s body to the crematorium around 7:30!" Shi Shaoqin lay lazily and slowly on the seat. His narrow Phoenix eyes narrowed slightly and the corners of his eyes picked slightly, "did Jue Chi find it?" Mosen looked at the eye stone, and Shaoqin lowered his eyes, "not yet..." Shi Shaoqin''s mouth overflowed with a shallow smile, "go to the place where he can''t go at ordinary times!" "Qin Shao means..." Mosen hesitated. "I see." Shi Shaoqin didn''t say anything more. He just got up calmly and walked out slowly He''s not in a hurry! Only when people''s hope and satisfaction reach a peak will they expand all their emotions and lose their reason. The afterglow of the sunset shed a layer of crimson light on the sea, just like the veil of a bride. However, the veil of was gathered by rows of tall buildings, leaving only the desolation under the desolation. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly cold and looked at the time... A layer of haze gradually shrouded his cold face. The sound of "drop" came in time. Gu Beichen''s sight "brushed" and fell on Li Yunze. "Beichen..." Li Yunze''s voice was a little frozen, even nervous. Li Gu strided on the screen and took a sharp step. The eagle''s eyes narrowed gradually and opened instantly when they finally became a gap Li Yunze''s breath was slightly rapid, "how..." He only said one word, but didn''t go on. He just twisted his eyebrows and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s thin lips scratched a sneer, turned around without saying anything, and drilled back from the hole in the wall. After slightly treating the ground, he pulled the curtain, covered the hole and went to open the door With a look in his eyes, Xiao Jing already understood. He nodded to find the person who had arranged the line of sight and sent grandma Gu''s body to the car to the crematorium. Everything seems to be all right. When the thick smoke fell on the gray ink space, there was a sound of shallow sobbing. The media are besieged outside the crematorium, and the news in Los Angeles is aimed at the funeral of grandma Gu, while Jian Mo still stagnates in Huakang hospital and starts talking more. Li Xiaoyue looked at Li Yunze and confronted her, "get out of the way!" "I''m sorry, I can''t..." Li Yunze said, "Yu Gong, the police haven''t officially issued a final report, so I can''t let you see it. Yu private... Jian Mo is Beichen''s wife, and I won''t let you see it without Beichen''s consent." "Don''t mention Gu Beichen''s son of a bitch to me..." Li Xiaoyue roared with red eyes. "Will you let it?" Li Yunze shrugged and stopped talking. Li Xiaoyue endured all the sadness. She just came out and told her that the girl was dead because she knew the case in prison and had a two-day window with the outside world? Or suicide What the fuck? Chapter 490 Li Xiaoyue went to push Li Yunze, and then strode to the direction of the morgue Li Yunze sighed softly, "you couldn''t get in." The separate morgues are password locked doors. If you want to enter... Without a password, you smash the door. Obviously, Li Xiaoyue can''t do either. "Li Yunze..." Li Xiaoyue roared angrily, and tears fell down in an instant. "I want to see Jian Mo, I want to see her!" "There''s nothing I can do..." Li Yunze shook his head. "What if I?" Suddenly, a voice came from behind. Li Yunze frowned slightly, turned and looked... He saw Mo Shaochen standing there. "Shaochen?" Li Yunze wondered. Mo Shaochen walked forward with a pocket in one hand. "As a lawyer of the police in the case of Jian Mo, I should have this right to watch the body." Li Yunze''s eyebrows frowned tighter "Do I need to go through the formalities?" Mo Shaochen spoke faintly. Li Yunze sighed helplessly, "according to the procedures, you need... But you really don''t need it." He smiled. "But... You know Beichen, don''t you?" A rhetorical question made Mo Shaochen frown. Some words don''t need to be said too deeply. Mo Shaochen''s eyes narrowed slightly and his eyes slid to Li Xiaoyue. "I''ll take you to see her tomorrow... OK?" Li Xiaoyue wanted to say ''no'', but when she got to her mouth, she could only resist nodding. "Let''s go!" After Mo Shaochen spoke, he looked at Li Yunze and took the lead in turning. Li Xiaoyue sucked her nose, wiped her tears and left with Mo Shaochen with her heavy legs and feet "When did they get together?" Li Yunze frowned and murmured, with a headache. Sitting in the car, Li Xiaoyue couldn''t help crying. Wiping her eyes, she said, "I don''t believe that Niu Er will commit suicide... Even if she works hard to the last minute, even if there is no hope, she can''t practice her life like this." Mo Shaochen stopped at the red light and looked at Li Xiaoyue. "Now you are definitely not the most sad," he sighed. "Beichen is." "What is he?" Li Xiaoyue turned back like crazy and shouted, "he killed the girl." Mo Shaochen started the car, "if I were you, I should face this matter more rationally at this time..." "What do you mean?" Li Xiaoyue forgot to cry. "Beichen really loves Jianmo. With my understanding of him, he can die for Jianmo..." Mo Shaochen said firmly, "but don''t you feel strange about the recent reversal?" Li Xiaoyue was at a loss for a moment. "Don''t let your emotions control other things..." Mo Shaochen said calmly, "Li Xiaoyue, don''t forget that you are a criminal defense lawyer!" Li Xiaoyue''s heart was suddenly stunned. She looked at Mo Shaochen with a slight expansion of pain. A voice in her heart kept resisting ¡­¡­ At night, there are black and white photos of grandma Gu in the middle of the hall. White stars and white chrysanthemums surround The black silk cloth was blown by the wind from nowhere, making the air heavy. Gu Beichen sat on the futon, and the empty atmosphere was dead silent. "Chen Shao, have something to eat first..." Susan and Xiao Jing came in with food and drink in their hands. "What did Xiao Nan say?" Gu Beichen took the snack box and asked. Xiao Jing sat down. "I haven''t answered yet." Gu Beichen glanced at Xiao Jing, didn''t speak any more, bowed his head and continued to eat... But the food in his mouth was like chewing wax, which was difficult to swallow. In the same empty night, Jian Mo sat on the swing outside the manor with dull eyes She wants to go out, or she wants to give Gu Beichen a message... But she has no way. Hearing the footsteps of the rate, Jane Mo glanced back slightly and then pulled back her line of sight. Shi juechi stood behind Jian Mo and gently shook her swing Night, not too bright lights, swings... Everything that should have been romantic, but gradually made Jane Mo angry. Suddenly jumped off the swing, the wind blew up her already long hair, and she stared at Shi juechi, "Shi juechi, are you so interesting?" Shi Juxi smiled, "huh?" Jian Mo felt that he punched the cotton, "I can''t feel your malice, but it''s illegal for you to prohibit my normal activities and contact with the outside world!" "Yes!" Shi Juxi nodded approvingly. "You..." Jane Mo gritted her teeth, "I''m ''dead'', Gu Beichen will be crazy!" "Hey... It seems that you didn''t listen to what I said to you." Shi Juxi sighed and shook his head. "In this world, no one can live without anyone." "Beichen won''t live anymore!" Jane Mo immediately refuted. Shi Juxi smiled, "didn''t you... Didn''t you intend to die before?" "..." Jane Mo was stunned, "that''s different." "I made supper. Do you want to eat together?" Shi Juxi asked with a smile, "you haven''t eaten for a day..." "No!" Jian Mo found that it was useless to talk to Shi juechi. He seems to have no temper at all. No matter what you say or do, he can face it calmly and gently. Angrily lying in bed, Jane Mo suddenly felt dizzy She closed her eyes, shook her head and swallowed hard, which relieved the dizziness a little. How do you still feel like this? Didn''t Shi juechi say he gave her the last medicine? Jane Mo slowly opened her eyes. In the dark environment, there were stars outside It seems that Gu Beichen has never thought about it. People can calmly face one death, but they can''t face the second. If Beichen really thinks she''s dead... Will she gradually be placed in the corner of memory in her life? Will there be a woman to replace her? Will the milk bag miss her? If you have a stepmother in the future, will you not like him? Problems are springing up like bamboo shoots after rain, and the "brush" comes out "Ah -" Jane Mo roared bitterly. The door of the bedroom was suddenly pushed open, and Jane Mo sat up with a ''gliding'' bullet and looked vaguely at Shi Juxi through the light from the outside. Shi Juxi sighed, shook his head and turned on the light "I said, I don''t eat!" Jian Mo looked at the tray in Shi Juxi''s hand and said angrily. Shi Juxi calmly put down the tray, "you eat these things, I can show you the news from Los Angeles..." "Really?" Jane Mo''s eyes lit up immediately. Shi Juxi nodded. Jian Mo was like beating chicken blood and hurried to eat Looking at her wolfing down, Shi juechi flashed a cunning light at the bottom of her eyes. "Finished..." Jian Mo wiped his mouth and looked at Shi juechi with expectant eyes. Shi juechi said "well", attached himself, cleaned up and went out. "Shi juechi..." Jian Mo was nervous and hurriedly reminded, "you said you wanted me to watch the news..." Chapter 491 Shi Jue Chi glanced at Jian Mo, and the corner of his mouth was always the smile that people couldn''t feel alienated. Jane Mo suddenly felt some hair in her heart. Instinctively, she resisted what he was going to say. "I said I could let you see..." Shi Juxi frowned and said it naturally. "I didn''t say now!" "You..." Jane moton said angrily, "you deceive me!" Shi juechi smiled more softly, "Mo Mo, if it''s cheating you to persuade you to eat... That''s good." Jane Mo choked and couldn''t say anything. She could only stare at Shi Juxi angrily and couldn''t refute. Besides... Do they know each other very well? Foam? Do you want to be so close! "It''s not that I won''t let you see... It''s that I see it. It''s meaningless!" Shi Jue Chi youyou said, "I won''t let you go for the time being, and I''m not sure if your body is really good..." Jane murmured at the corners of her mouth and didn''t speak, but the tighter her lips were. Shi juechi looked at her charming and angry appearance and couldn''t help laughing, "in fact, transpose and think... For Gu Beichen, would it be better for you to die once or twice?" A simple rhetorical question made Jian MO forget his anger and just stared at Shi Jue Chi She can''t face the second death. How can ah Chen face her two deaths? One sad time is not enough. Does she want to hurt him more? "But..." Jane Mo hesitated, because she didn''t know what to "but"? Shi Jue Chi''s eyes were soft, but he saw through Jian Mo''s mind, "are you afraid... Gu Beichen has forgotten you?" Jane''s face flushed slightly because of the embarrassment of being exposed. "If an unforgettable love is for forgetting," Shi juechi smiled, "then this love is not so desirable..." Without saying anything more, Shi juechi just stared at Jian Mo deeply, then turned and left. Jane Mo is a very strong woman. She has a willfulness that many people don''t have, but she also has the same hesitation as a little girl In the face of love, she sticks to it, but she is not confident. Greedy... But confused! Shi juechi put down the tray and sighed. "By no means," Carney leaned aside with his arms around his chest. "I''m afraid this place is not safe." "What did the sample say?" Shi juechi looked at Carney while pouring water. Carney shook his head. "I''m a little uneasy..." His premonition is very sensitive at many times. From dinner, he has a feeling of panic. Who is Qin Shao? That''s the master of Mo palace! How many people want to bring him down, but so far they have failed People close to you know that Qin Shao is a master of playing psychology. He always cuts off all your dreams when you are complacent or only one step away from victory. The despair at that time was beyond description "Don''t worry!" Shi juechi sat down and drank. "Now it''s patience... I move, I promise, he will find out at the first time." Nowadays, only static braking is available. Carney tried to persuade something, but finally swallowed it back. He doesn''t understand For a simple foam, is it worth it? Mo palace doesn''t know how many innocent people like Xiang Jianmo every year, let alone how many dying people like Gu Beichen... Wouldn''t it be tiring if everyone took care of it? Carney didn''t ask, because there was no result. If you have to say that there is nothing like Qin Shao, it is estimated to be that... Shen! ¡­¡­ The city of Los Angeles at night was shrouded in sadness. In the memorial hall, only Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing are left in the wake. Leaning back against the wall, Gu Beichen closed his eyes as if he had entered a dream. He had not rested for too many days, and his eyes were slightly blue. In the hall, there was a faint light from the electronic candle, and there was a black silence. "Ah Chen, help me..." "Ah Chen, help me... Help me..." "Ah Chen -" Gu Beichen suddenly sat up straight. In the dark, there was panic in his eyes, which gradually overflowed, deep and full of horror under the shadow. Breathing a little heavy, his forehead even overflowed with cold sweat... His cold and indifferent face was even more frightened. Mo''er is asking for help with him... It''s so true. He swallowed hard. While the Adam''s apple rolled, his temples twitched. How did this happen? "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing woke up alert and hurried over. Gu Beichen closed his eyes and shook his head. When he opened it again, the fundus of his eyes had recovered calm. "You stay here..." Gu Beichen said, and the man had stood up. Xiao Jing answered and watched Gu Beichen leave the hall with a sigh. At this point, it seems that... No matter how you go, there may be problems. Gu Beichen walked along the nearby path with his hands in his pockets. The night was dark and there were no stars. The roadside showed a faint light through the leafy trees. Suddenly, Gu Beichen stopped, and the eagle''s eyes looked at the front sharply A figure stood there with his hands copying his pockets, showing a treacherous look. Gu Beichen narrowed his eyes slightly, didn''t move, just looked quietly I don''t know how long it took, as if the figure hidden in the dark lost patience. "Chen, I''ve been waiting for you for a long time..." the voice came slowly with a leisurely coldness and alienation. Gu Beichen frowned in an instant. For this title, he had a resistance from his physical instinct. His eagle eyes gathered slightly, and he wanted to see through the darkness and see the person in front... Unfortunately, because of the angle and light, he could only see the outline of the figure. "A game, I''ve been waiting for you for too long..." the voice came again. "Your alertness is obviously much worse." Gu Beichen''s breath gradually shortens, and anger gradually overflows from the depths of the ink pupil The figure began to move and walked towards Gu Beichen step by step. Gu Beichen subconsciously resisted something, but he forced himself to accept it. The distance is shortening and the light is spreading. Gu Beichen looks at the face contour of the person walking in and gradually enlarges at the bottom of his eyes The pupil was also expanding uncontrollably. When he saw the person in front of him, Gu Beichen''s eyes condensed together in an instant. Shi Shaoqin? "Why are you?" Gu Beichen''s voice was uncontrollably cold, and his eyes were even more angry. "See me unhappy?" Shi Shaoqin asked shallowly, and the smile from the corners of his mouth suddenly spread, "Chen, long time no see!" "I hope we''ll never see..." Gu Beichen grinned coldly. Shi Shaoqin smiled. "I said, you are the most interested person in my life... Chen, it''s too long for me. How can we not see each other?" "Shi Shaoqin, you don''t keep your word!" Shi Shaoqin smiled. "To you, when did I count?" Gu Beichen sank his eyes. "Shi Shaoqin, was Jian Mo taken away by you?" Chapter 492 "Chen Shao, Chen Shao..." Gu Beichen suddenly opened his eyes, which were gray and gloomy. Xiao Jing frowned at Gu Beichen, with some worry on his face. Gu Beichen closed his eyes and took a deep breath Originally, it''s all dreams! Are you thinking day and dreaming night? He dreamed of Shi Shaoqin Looking out of the window slightly, the dark night is the same as that in the dream. There is no starlight and depression everywhere. "Turn around and pour me a cup of water......". Gu Beichen took a drink and moistened his throat. Then he asked, "haven''t you heard yet?" Xiao Jing shook his head. Now it has been basically determined that they have entered a bureau... A bureau arranged by people''s attention. This situation is very big. At least, every time they doubt, they will lead all their eyes to another direction Until Jane Mo''s death, they almost fell into it. "Chen Shao, if it''s Shi Shaoqin..." Xiao Jing didn''t continue halfway through his words. This man is a nightmare. He seems unwilling to let go of his evil hand anytime and anywhere. Gu Beichen looked very calm, "Xiao Jing... Compared with Mo''er''s death, I suddenly felt a little lucky." Xiao Jing sat down and remained silent, but he thought in his heart: but Jian Mo was in Shi Shaoqin''s hand. He thought it might be worse. Just, who knows? After all, only alive can we hope to continue What worries Xiao Jing most now is whether Chen Shao can persist if history is performed again. Maybe, maybe... No! However, the only thing you can believe is that success is also simple foam, failure is also simple foam. The darkness of the night will eventually be dispelled by the dawn when it comes. When the sun shines warm in every corner, the new day has a new direction, and naturally there are new public opinion gossip. Outside grandma Gu''s memorial hall, there are almost all famous families and top officials in Los Angeles, as well as some old friends and subordinates flying from all over the country. The Gu family was dressed in black and bowed back solemnly. Gu Beichen''s face was indifferent from beginning to end, without the slightest expression change "Beichen..." Chen Xuan and Li Jinxi went to Gu Beichen, "I''m sorry!" Gu Beichen nodded slightly and didn''t speak. Li Jinxi''s eyes turned red in an instant. She and Yunze grew up together with Gu Beichen. They were joking and joking. At the same time, seeing him accept two sorrows at the same time, they couldn''t help feeling sad. The warm wind was gentle, and it was early morning the next day when grandma Gu was buried. The news of the outside world always revolves around the departure of grandma Gu and the fact that Jian Mo is still placed in the morgue Public opinion has gradually divided into two kinds. One is that Jian Mo is really a chess piece for Gu Beichen to take back the ownership of the emperor. It is a play from beginning to end. The other is that acting is just Gu mohuai''s slander against Gu Beichen. The fact is that Gu Beichen really loves Jian Mo so much that he can''t accept her death and thinks Jian Mo is still alive... He doesn''t face the reality. For girls with love dreams, they gradually accept this statement However, most people still believe that the feeling between Gu Beichen and Jian Mo is simply false. But either way, it has not affected the people who should be affected at all. "Beichen, why don''t you go and have a rest?" Gu CI looked at Gu Beichen with some worry and said. "Elder sister, no need..." Gu Beichen''s voice was calm. "I''ll stay with grandpa and grandma for a while." Gu CI sighed and said nothing more. People went back to grandma Gu''s villa, but several people didn''t leave. "I have something to say to Beichen..." Mo Shaochen opened his mouth. Chu Zixiao looked at him and said nothing. He took the lead to the other end. Xiao Jing, Li Yunze and others looked at Beichen and walked in the direction of Chu Zixiao. "Jane Mo is not dead, is she?" Mo Shaochen asked directly. Gu Beichen looked sharply at Mo Shaochen and didn''t speak. Mo Shaochen looked at him and looked back at grandma Gu''s newly carved tombstone. "I went to the hospital with Li Xiaoyue the day before yesterday. Yunze wouldn''t let me see Jian mo. I was thinking... It''s just a corpse. No matter who it is, they have no right to deprive their relatives and friends of the right to visit." "This is not enough for you to be sure that Mo''er is not dead..." Gu Beichen said coldly. "Yes!" Mo Shaochen looked at Gu Beichen again. "Beichen, don''t forget... I know you very well." A person who has loved deeply can best understand the mood of others'' deep love "Can you tell me what happened recently?" Mo Shaochen is a lawyer. He has a sensitivity that ordinary people don''t have. "Whether it''s you, Jian Mo or Zixiao... It seems to be very strange." "I''m not sure..." Gu Beichen said honestly, "I''m not sure who the people in the morgue are." He doubted, but there were too many points that he had to believe. The origin of the contradiction is his obsession or something... Who knows? Mo Shaochen frowned, "Beichen?" "Shaochen," Gu Beichen sighed softly, and there was no too much expression on his cold face, "if you can, help me take care of Xiaoyue!" "Huh?" Mo Shaochen was slightly stunned. "She is Mo''er''s only close friend. I''m afraid I can''t care about it recently..." Gu Beichen Mo Tong said slightly. "I''ll let Xiao Jing deal with the case she''s been working on recently, but this man... If you can''t let Shen Chu go, don''t provoke him." "You let me take care of you and don''t let me provoke you?" Mo Shaochen raised his eyebrows and sneered at the corners of his mouth. "You know what I mean..." Gu Beichen said faintly without saying anything. He just bowed to the tombstone of Grandpa and grandma Gu and walked towards Chu Zixiao. "I want to see your shares in three days..." Gu Beichen said coldly. Chu Zixiao quietly looked at Gu Beichen, didn''t speak, just nodded. His persistence has created such a situation now. Everything is meaningless Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze, turned and walked down. Li Yunze sighed deeply, patted Chu Zixiao on the shoulder to show comfort, and followed Gu Beichen down "What are you going to do?" Li Yunze asked after catching up with Gu Beichen. "The DNA samples of the corpse and Jian Mo are consistent," Gu Beichen said coldly, "but they are not consistent with Xiao Jie. In this case, you can''t tell why. What can I do?" Li Yunze was a little embarrassed and twitched at the corners of his mouth. "You can see that I''m very good at holding the scalpel, and I seem to have a poor level of pharmacology." Gu Beichen glanced at Li Yunze and stopped slowly. The sun had become dazzling. He narrowed his eyes slightly. It was very hot in the midsummer sun, but he felt cold all over. Gu Beichen opened his thin lips and said slowly, "I''m going to find Shi Shaoqin..." Chapter 493 "What?" As soon as Li Yunze heard this, his stunned mouth couldn''t close and stared at Gu Beichen, "aren''t you kidding me?" "Do you think I''ll make fun of it?" Gu Beichen sneered. Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth and was a little worried, but he didn''t know what to say "Beichen, have you figured it out?" Li Yunze''s voice was a little heavy, and looking at Gu Beichen''s line of sight was full of complex emotions. "It''s possible that our guess is just a guess... After all, there is no dead corner of medicine." Even if it''s a one in a billion chance, a small pity... It can still happen. There may be a medical deviation between Jane and Mo, that is, there may be a deviation between Jane and mo. If this is true... Beichen goes to find Shi Shaoqin, and no one can guarantee what will happen. That time Beichen was still alive and even stood up... This time? Li Yunze''s worry is that all the sources are Jianmo this time, and when he finds that Jianmo has really left the world... Gu Beichen really has no support. "Even if there is a chance, I don''t want to give up." Gu Beichen''s cold face didn''t have too many emotional fluctuations. "Yunze, I pulled her into my world again. How can I bear to see her leave?" A rhetorical question or self-question made Li Yunze silent. "What are you going to do?" Li Yunze asked after all, but his voice was heavy, as if to burst his heart. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked forward, and the ink pupil gradually became deep and bottomless. He opened his thin lips and said slowly, "I can''t do anything..." Li Yunze frowned, "what do you mean?" "Even if it is very small, I will occupy the leading position!" Gu Beichen said slowly, raised his feet and walked down. Li Yunze stood in place and looked at Gu Beichen''s back more and more far away from his eyes until it disappeared around the corner "If it''s your decision," Li Yunze said enough, "Beichen, I support you!" Xiao Jing looked at Li Yunze, bowed to him deeply, got up and looked at him tightly. Then he gritted his teeth and hurried after Gu Beichen. When Chu Zixiao and Mo Shaochen came down, Li Yunze still stood there and didn''t go. He looked at them, and his sight finally fell on Chu Zixiao "Beichen has never given up on you..." after Li Yunze put down a sentence without end, he turned and left first. It makes people feel that he just wants to wait for Chu Zixiao and say this to him. Beichen doesn''t want to put pressure on Zixiao, but he can''t. It doesn''t make sense... Beichen will bear everything, doesn''t it? Li Yunze smiled slightly at the corners of his mouth. There was no temperature in that smile. Such a big villa is obviously crowded with people, but it makes people feel empty. After Gu Beichen came down, he didn''t go to the villa, but went to the vegetable garden behind him. From a distance, I saw aunt Lan "busy" there alone, watering and weeding while talking about something. Hearing the footsteps approaching, aunt Lan''s men slowed down and quickly tilted their heads to the other side. Gu Beichen squatted down and weeded silently. After a while, he estimated that Aunt LAN could slightly hold her emotions, and then said, "aunt LAN, it''s over here. You can go to live in the middle of the mountain?" Aunt Lan''s eyes were red and there were tears inside. "I''m used to it here..." "It''s good for grandma to be accompanied by grandpa." Gu Beichen looked at the green vegetables in the vegetable garden. "Here, it hurts the scenery and is bad for your health..." he glanced at Aunt LAN, "you don''t want grandma to worry about you, don''t you?" Aunt LAN couldn''t help it. Her nose was sour and her tears fell down again. She picked up a corner of her apron and began to wipe it, but she couldn''t stop. Gu Beichen silently hugged aunt LAN, "if you don''t want to go, it''s good to be here..." "Before the old lady leaves, I can''t rest assured of you..." aunt Lan said. "I can''t rest assured of young master Jie. Chen Shao, I want to go to school." Gu Beichen let go of aunt LAN and stared at her. Aunt LAN and Fang Xilan are the same. They are the families of martyrs. However, aunt LAN has no children... She has focused on taking care of her family all her life. "If that''s what you want, I''ll arrange it." Gu Beichen neither refused nor dissuaded. Aunt LAN nodded with a new wave of tears in her eyes. ¡­¡­ Jian Mo eats the food in front of her angrily. She stares at Shi Juchi every time she takes a bite. Shi juechi is elegant from beginning to end, as if she were the air. Jane Mo doesn''t understand. How can anyone be so calm? "How long are you going to keep me?" Jane Mo let out her breath weakly. "Where is this?" "First of all, I didn''t lock you up..." Shi Jue Chi said with a smile. "Second, this is a very remote place. It''s basically impossible to leave without the help of transportation." Jian Mo also found it, and even "surveyed" the neighborhood yesterday The woods outside are intricate and intertwined. It''s difficult to go out without getting lost. Besides, she has a poor sense of direction. I guess I''m fascinated by the woods before I go out. "People who build a small manor here must be out of their minds..." Jane Mo muttered. Shi juechi heard what Jian Mo said and glanced at him slightly, "I think so, too." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and was speechless, "don''t eat." Jian Mo got up angrily and went out After two days of "Duel", she found that no matter what she said or did, she couldn''t arouse Shi Juxi''s temper Such people are either smiling or have no temper. But no matter which kind, it will make people weak or confused and don''t know what to do! Carney came in at the same time after Jane went out. He looked back at Jian Mo''s angry look and smiled, "there are still people in this world who can be angry with you... Tut Tut, sure enough, it''s going to rain this day." He said, and the man turned and came in. "There''s no movement on the other side of the Mo palace..." Carney looked serious. "Never stop. It''s as if you and Qin Shao are using it." Shi juechi put down his chopsticks, wiped his mouth gracefully and got up. "What''s the situation in Los Angeles?" "Wind and rain all over the city..." Carney shrugged. "Gu Beichen still didn''t plan to bury the body of ''Jian mo''. The most important thing is to ignore the speculation of the outside world and let it go crazy." Shi Juxi frowned slightly. Seeing his tangled appearance, Carney couldn''t help laughing and asked, "Jue Shao, do you think... Gu Beichen doesn''t think Jane Mo is dead, or is it because he''s not willing to see Jane Mo buried?" Chapter 494 Shi juechi looked at Carney and sighed, "either way, it''s not the ending I''m satisfied with at present." Originally, he wanted Gu Beichen to think that Jian Mo was "dead". After setting a mystery, he focused on finding On the other hand, he can have time to observe Jian Mo''s body and see if the medicine is useful. The worst result was that he had a stalemate with Shaoqin about taking medicine. But now The body of "Jian Mo" appeared. With Gu Beichen''s mind, it seemed that he didn''t find it to be false... At least, on the surface, he believed it. This corpse can''t appear for no reason. The most important thing is that it can''t be the same as Jian Mo''s. What does that mean? Coincidence is only man-made! And this man, he doesn''t have to guess, must be Shaoqin! This is the root of the problem If it was Shaoqin, why did he do that? It won''t do him any good, will it? At least not yet! Jian Mo is "dead". It can be said that all the conditions restricting Gu Beichen are gone. What is Shaoqin''s purpose? This is what Shi juexi is most worried about at the moment... If he doesn''t know Shi Shaoqin''s purpose, it will be difficult to take the next step. "Never less? Never less..." Carney frowned and shouted. "Huh?" Chi Mengjue stone. Carney rolled his eyes discontentedly, "what are you going to do next? Do you want to change places? Now whether you wait or go... It''s not complete. The odds are five or five..." Shi juechi glanced at Carney and went to the window. The sight subconsciously fell on Jian mo I saw her sitting on the swing, her head gently leaning on the hemp rope, shaking leisurely... The rhythm is light and slow, making people feel a little dull. Jane Mo looked down at the blue diamond ring on her finger and gradually lost her mind. It seems that the "proposal" by the river in Los Angeles happened yesterday, but now the distance between her and ah Chen seems to be separated by days. Raise your hand and slide the ring slightly to reveal the tiny tattoo inside. This is the place closest to the heart. His ring covers her heart, and she also puts him in her heart "Chen, what should I do?" Jian Mo murmured and mocked himself at the corners of his mouth, "I want to go back, but I''m afraid what Shi juechi said may happen..." Whether he faced her second death or her fear, it was not enough to support her determination. Shi juechi didn''t seem to be lying to her. That''s why she fell into contradiction. Slowly holding his hand, the finger of the other hand gently rubbed the ring, as if touching Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face A thin layer of water mist gradually permeated the fundus of Jian Mo''s eyes, which became particularly dazzling in the sun. Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo for a long time. It was clear that he could only see some side faces from his angle, but he seemed to see through all her emotions. "Wait first..." Shi Jue Chi youyou said, "Jane Mo is still an unstable factor. I must persuade her first." If the people around you are not on the same front as yourself, many of the plans will not be implemented this time. "If you don''t make it clear to her, I''m afraid she won''t believe it." Carney said sharply. Shi juechi naturally knows that Jian Mo is very clever. These two days, she used all kinds of means to get words out of his mouth. But there are many things he can''t say. No matter Shaoqin or Mo palace, or the grudge between Shaoqin and Gu Beichen... We can''t say. "Forget it, you know it anyway." Carney shrugged and walked to the table. "But, by no means, I still have to remind you..." his face was rarely serious. "Go on, really..." Before he finished speaking, he saw Shi juechi suddenly turn around and run outside. Carney twitched at the corners of his mouth. After a moment of stunned, he hurried out. When Shi juechi felt something wrong with Jian Mo, he reacted at the first time. However, it''s still a step too late for others to rush out Jian Mo''s body rubbed against the ground like cotton that had collapsed. "Jian Mo, Jian mo..." Shi juechi picked up Jian Mo and saw that she was pale and didn''t shout any more. She just picked her up horizontally and walked into the house. Carney was not in a state. After reacting, he frowned and murmured, "shouldn''t..." At the same time, he hurried to follow. "Bring silenceds..." Shi juechi said hurriedly. "By no means. You''ve figured it out." Carney frowned. "According to the time, silenceds can''t be taken until a week after silence antidote." Shi juechi hesitated on his face, "but according to the news I got, it''s impossible to faint again after taking silence antidote... Unless he didn''t take silenceds after a week." Carney was also stunned. There was no way to argue for a while. "Well, the only explanation now..." Kani looked at Shi juechi, as if unintentionally, and as if Hu Chai shrugged, "... That''s the qinshao game, which has been set from the beginning." Chi''s face changed in an instant. If so... What does that mean? Shi juechi laughed at himself, "that is to say, from the beginning, he didn''t believe me..." Carney twitched in the corner of his mouth. "I''m just guessing." "But how do you explain it now?" Shi juechi stared at Carney angrily. Finally, he frowned sadly and looked at Jian Mo, "if your guess is true, whether silenceds gives Jian Mo food or not has become a five-to-five chance." Carney''s face was bitter. If so, didn''t they toss about in vain before? Even, it may become a free labor force... Bring people, he doesn''t need to do anything, just wait. "Give the silence DS to Jian Mo first..." Shi juechi finally said, "no matter what, you have to fight." "You has the final say..." Carney shrugged and turned to take the medicine. Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo and narrowed his eyes slightly Shaoqin, you can do the same to me... Ha ha! ¡­¡­ The Midsummer in Los Angeles makes people anxious. Because of taking care of family affairs, the air is filled with depression. Jian Heng wanted to see "Jian Mo", but he didn''t do it in any way. "Second uncle..." Jane truss pushed the door and came in. She looked at Gu muhuai standing at the window and shouted. "Haven''t you seen it yet?" Gu muhuai turned and looked at him. Jane truss shook her head. "Hum!" Gu mohuai sneered. "Second uncle, what are you going to do next?" Asked Jane truss, gritting her teeth. "He wants to kick us out of the emperor like this," Gu murhuai twitched slightly at the corners of his mouth and his eyes became cruel. "I''m afraid... It''s not that easy." Then he slowly took out his mobile phone, opened an email and looked at the eyes, and transferred out several media, sending the mail to the past. Chapter 495 Jian Heng doesn''t know what Gu mohuai sent, but he knows Maybe this is their last trump card. "How''s JK?" Gu mohuai looked up and asked. Jian Heng sneered, "Shen Hangzhi is also very cruel. From beginning to end, he didn''t treat Shen Chu as his daughter..." "Don''t you take Jane Mo as your sister?" Gu muhuai asked with a smile, but there was no irony. "People, in order to achieve their goals, sometimes sacrifice is necessary." Jane truss''s face changed slightly and nodded. "Why do most people do nothing in their life?" Gu Mo Huai looked coldly, "that''s because they don''t want to stand at the top of the heart... No, step on everything at the bottom of their feet and look down on the heart of the world." "Yes!" Jian Heng''s heart was shaken, and the guilt and sadness that had just flashed away disappeared in a moment. Gu mohuai looked at the change of Jian truss and slowly opened his mouth with a smile. "Gu Heng, many things are not for no reason... It''s not a coincidence, nor is he lucky." Jian truss looked at Gu mohuai with some incomprehension, "second uncle means..." "Look back, you will understand." Gu muhuai smiled deeply. "You just need to remember what I said." Jane truss didn''t continue to ask, but her doubts were getting deeper and deeper. ¡­¡­ The atmosphere in grandma Gu''s villa is still dignified and full of sadness. Gu Moyuan and others have left one after another, leaving all the young people. Chen Xuan and Li Jinxi looked at each other and motioned slightly. Li Jinxi nodded imperceptibly and walked towards Shen Chu, "ah Chu, they estimate that there are still things to talk about, we..." Shen Chu took a look at Li Jinxi, and the pride on his face was given from childhood, "I have something to do with Beichen." "Ah Chu..." Li Jinxi frowned and looked at Mo Shaochen. "What do you have to say now?" Shen Chu smiled astringently at the corners of his mouth. After looking at several people, his eyes fell on Gu Beichen, "I have something to find you. Call me when you''re busy..." Seeing that she didn''t insist, Li Jinxi breathed out secretly. After nodding slightly with Chen Xuan, Li Jinxi and Shen Chuyi left the villa first. Gu Beichen, Chen Xuan, Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao were all left in the house. Li Yunze left after coming down from the mountain. "If I guess correctly these two days, my second uncle will make a move..." Gu Beichen said faintly, and his eyes fell on Chen Xuan. "If there is no accident, I''m afraid the media will be the first to have a storm." Chen Xuan has a headache. "Huayu is mainly for entertainment. Your emperor wants to be a TV station now, but he hasn''t got up yet... I''m afraid it''s still difficult to change the weather vane of Los Angeles." I''m afraid it''s light. "I''ll say hello elsewhere..." Gu Beichen said, while the mobile phone vibrated. He slightly touched the corner of his mouth, took it out, looked at it and picked it up The people on the phone didn''t know what they were talking about. From beginning to end, Gu Beichen just narrowed his eyes, and there was no other expression change. "Let go..." Gu Beichen waited for the other party to finish, then gently opened his thin lips and said. The other party was silent, "Chen Shao, are you sure?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered calmly. "Then... I''ll let it go." The other party still reconfirmed. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and said, "how sharp and how to write." The other party''s voice was startled and responded quickly. Gu Beichen hung up the phone, motioned with Chen Xuan and looked at Chu Zixiao, "go and prepare your things." Chu Zixiao''s face was not very good. He nodded, copied his pocket with both hands without saying anything, and left with a barren figure "I''ll go first," Mo Shaochen said faintly. "I know what you want to do, and you should know... For you, I do have no principles occasionally." Gu Beichen nodded and said nothing more. He and Shaochen are cousins. They have a tacit understanding from childhood to childhood. There is no need for words. In such a large villa, only Chen Xuan and Gu Beichen are left from overcrowding. "For the sake of Mo palace?" After a moment of silence, Chen Xuan asked with a sigh. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, "I''ll go there after the emperor''s affairs are handled." Chen Xuan''s eyes widened in an instant, "shit, are you kidding me?" Others don''t know, but as long as those who know Mo palace know, it''s better to leave far away... No one will go to Mo palace sick. No, even those who are sick won''t go! "Do you think I''m kidding?" Gu Beichen looked at Chen Xuan coldly. Chen Xuan twitched at the corners of his mouth and looked at Gu Beichen''s serious face. He was a little embarrassed. "Beichen, do you have a holiday with Shi Shaoqin?" "I just doubt something and want to prove it..." Gu Beichen said calmly. "Then you don''t need to go to Mo palace?" Chen Xuan turned his eyes. "Although big things can''t help, it should be OK to inquire about some things on the road." After a slight pause, Chen Xuan asked suspiciously, "Beichen, do you think there is something strange about Jian Mo''s death?" He doubted it very much. Although I don''t have much contact with Jane Mo, it doesn''t look like a person who will commit suicide "Whether or not..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slowly, and his voice showed a cold hesitation, "... They are all dead, aren''t they?" A rhetorical question made Chen Xuan unable to refute. He could only sigh and say, "let me ask for you!" Gu Beichen nodded. "I''m gone too..." Chen Xuan sighed. "Call me if you need anything." He nodded slightly, turned and left. The afternoon sun is particularly dazzling, and heat flows in the air. It is combined with the whole atmosphere of Los Angeles, which is oppressive and powerless. "God, there''s big news again..." The startled voice broke the sleepy office with surprise, and everyone suddenly looked at the surprised person. "Wang Ping, are you going to scare people to death?" Yelled in a bad mood at night. "No, there''s news about Gu''s family again." Wang Ping said hurriedly, "look for yourself." "I''m not interested..." Xiang night was angry. Now she is not interested in everything related to Gu Beichen. In the past, loving and worshipping him was the biggest stain in her life. But she is not interested, but someone is interested. Everyone took out their mobile phones and opened the interface of Los Angeles news Gu Moyuan''s illegitimate son was born out of wedlock. Gu Beichen is not the only heir to Gu''s family! This is not a thriller. What''s more incredible is the subtitle The illegitimate son is Jian Mo''s brother, Jian Chang! Chapter 496 "I''ll go. Is the news too hot?" Another person shouted in surprise, "the most important thing is that if Jian Chang is Gu''s child, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo will not..." He didn''t go on. He just stared at everyone, as if waiting for everyone''s affirmation and speculation in his heart. Some people couldn''t turn around and didn''t understand what he said. Some people also frowned slightly, as if they were trapped in an incredible "No wonder..." someone said stupidly, "... Jane Mo will jump into Luocheng river." If Jian Mo and Gu Beichen are related by blood, they are now husband and wife... Such a big blow, there is a ghost if they don''t jump into the river and commit suicide! "What are you talking about?" Mu Xiaoran stared, "thanks to you, one by one, or highly educated white-collar workers... What do you think?" "Mu Xiaoran, you can''t blame us. That''s what the news says..." someone has finished reading the news report. "That''s also the speculation of the media!" Mu Xiaoran Leng hum, "don''t say whether Jian Heng is the illegitimate son of the family... Even if so, does sister Mo have little blood relationship with Chen?" The more she said, the more angry she became, "you can''t say that sister Mo and Jian Chang are brothers and sisters, and Jian Chang and Chen Shao are brothers... And sister Mo and Chen Shao are just husband and wife?" Everyone was a little dizzy by mu Xiaoran''s angry words, and several people were talking about her relationship. Xiang night praised mu Xiaoran, and then looked contemptuously at those who made nothing out of nothing. "I advise you to look at the news and don''t go into the play too deeply..." Da Xiong said somewhat unbearably, "no matter what the relationship is, it''s also a matter of taking care of the family... Mo Mo is gone now. Why are you colleagues? I don''t want to see what you say." Da Xiong is an old man in the design department. Although he has not made so many achievements as Jian Mo, he still has some status. Everyone was silent one by one, but they were still wondering whether Jian Mo''s suicide was due to his life experience. After all, Jane Mo is such a strong woman that she can''t think of it because of Gu Beichen''s scandal. If you add this thing, it will make people understand. ¡­¡­ The sound of "pa" came, and then there were broken sounds coming into the eardrum one after another. "Gu Moyuan, didn''t you say you had nothing to do with Su Mo?" CEN Lanxi yelled at Gu Moyuan like crazy, "nothing happened. Why did a simple truss appear?" Gu Moyuan remained silent with a dignified face. "Are you talking? Is Jane chang the bastard of you and Sumer?" CEN Lanxi stared and roared. At the same time, he took what he could take around him and threw it at Gu Moyuan. However, I don''t know whether I didn''t want to hit Gu Moyuan subconsciously, or because I was angry and lost my accuracy... None of the things thrown from beginning to end hit Gu Moyuan. "Lanxi, i..." Gu Moyuan wanted to explain, but how? Jian Heng is indeed his son. Although he didn''t want to that night at the beginning... However, when something happened, it happened, and he couldn''t erase it. Seeing that Gu Moyuan didn''t even explain, cen Lanxi had some extravagant hopes and completely put them out. "Gu Moyuan, we divorce!" CEN Lanxi roared a little. She was shaking all over because she was too hard. Gu Moyuan frowned, "Lanxi, what are you doing now? How old are we and why are we divorced?" CEN Lanxi cried, "Gu Moyuan, the most wrong thing I''ve done in my life is to marry you a coward... You a weak man!" Her disappointment did not hide, "how can you afford me?" Gu Moyuan was speechless and sat there in silence. Footsteps came from the door. Gu Moyuan looked and saw Gu Beichen standing there with his pocket in one hand. "Beichen..." Gu Moyuan shouted with a complicated look and stood up slowly. CEN Lanxi didn''t care about a mother''s appearance at the moment. Seeing Gu Beichen, she simply burst into tears. Gu Beichen looked coldly and came in. Before he could speak, Gu Moyuan''s cell phone rang. After Gu Moyuan looked at Gu Beichen and Cen Lanxi, he answered the phone with a bad face, "silent Huai?" "Elder brother, how did this come out?" Gu muhuai''s voice was worried. "I, I don''t know..." Gu Moyuan looked at Gu Beichen again as if he were guilty of a thief. "Where are you? Why didn''t you arrive at mom''s funeral?" "Something happened..." Gu mohuai said. "Jian Heng knows now and has been asking me if it''s true? He''s still saying that no wonder Jian Zhanfeng didn''t like him before and was only good to Jian mo." Gu Moyuan heard it, and his heart was full of mixed feelings. "I''m walking to the manor right now. Are you there?" Gu muhuai asked. Gu Moyuan wanted to ask whether Jian Heng came with him, but he didn''t dare to ask. "Talk about it later!" Gu Moyuan said quietly. "Inconvenient?" Gu muhuai didn''t seem to understand. "Yes." Gu mohuai smiled at the corner of his mouth. He was not on the way to Gu''s manor, but standing on the terrace of the hotel, "forget it, I''ll talk to you later!" "Good!" Gu Moyuan answered and hung up. "Who is it? Is it Jian Chang?" CEN Lanxi stared like a cockfight, "Gu Moyuan, I tell you, Jian Heng wants to enter the door of Gu''s house, but there''s no door!" "Let him in..." Gu Beichen''s voice came quietly. "What?" CEN Lanxi was stunned for a moment. "Beichen, what are you talking about?" After Gu Beichen looked at Cen Lanxi, his eyes fell on Gu Moyuan, "since Jian truss is the child of Gu''s family, there is no reason not to come back." After a pause, "since the second uncle wants him to take care of his family so much, come in..." CEN Lanxi has forgotten to cry. She doesn''t know how to respond to Gu Beichen''s attitude. "Beichen?" Gu Moyuan couldn''t react, and his face was puzzled. "This is my attitude..." Gu Beichen said, turned and left again. Things that should come naturally. It''s better to solve them at one time than to leave future troubles. ¡­¡­ Shi juechi watched the news in Los Angeles and had a headache watching the chaotic situation. Glancing at Jian Mo, who was still "sleeping", he took his mobile phone and walked to the window. At this moment, he cannot judge whether the next development of Los Angeles is related to Shaoqin. If Gu Beichen did it, did he notice it, or did it just develop with the trend? Questions came up one by one, and Shi Juxi''s eyebrows tightened. He felt a little uneasy in his heart, as if... He felt why Shaoqin wanted to get out the body of "Jian Mo". From beginning to end, Shaoqin is attracting Gu Beichen Chapter 497 Xiao Jing drove out of Gu''s manor and looked in the rearview mirror. Gu Beichen looked ahead, "Chen Shao, where are you going?" "How''s the situation with boss long?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer the question. "Some thorny......" Xiao Jing sighed softly. "Listen to Xiao Nan, brother Xiao is on fire this time." Gu Beichen didn''t speak any more, but looked out of the window On the road from the suburbs to the urban area, there are open spaces with a wide view on both sides of the road. Gu Beichen looked at the passing grass, and gradually, the eagle''s eyes became deep. After a while, just as the car was about to drive in and lose its surroundings, Gu Beichen took back his sight, took out his mobile phone... Called out Shen Chu''s number and dialed it. "Where is it?" Gu Beichen''s voice was indifferent and alienated. Shen Chu pondered slightly, "I''m in the company." "Have dinner together in the evening," Gu Beichen said quietly without any emotion. "I''m waiting for you in the sky." "Good!" Shen Chu answered and hung up. Shen Hangzhi looked at Shen Chu and smiled, "Gu Beichen''s?" Although it''s a doubt, it''s obvious that he''s sure. Shen Chu didn''t answer. He just looked at Shen Hangzhi with complicated eyes. "Xiao Chu..." "What I want to do is my business," Shen Chu coldly interrupted Shen Hangzhi. "As for the things between you and your mother, I won''t care... It''s my father''s fault... I can only blame me for having the wrong baby." With a cold hum, Shen Chu looked at Shen hang indifferently, turned and opened the door of the office and wanted to leave. "Shen Chu!" Shen Hangzhi immediately cooled his face. Shen Chu clenched his hand on the doorknob and sneered, "in fact, you don''t have to force me... I have reached an agreement with Chu Zixiao." After a pause, she looked disappointed, "but why do you have to force me with that?" Shen Hangzhi didn''t feel guilty at all, but said coldly, "what''s the relationship between Chu Zixiao and Gu Beichen? Hehe, do you really trust him so much?" Shen Chu''s hand became tighter and tighter. Because he exerted too much force, his knuckles had turned white. "I''m afraid he will support Gu mohuai this time. He knows that Gu Beichen won''t lose?" Shen hang snorted coldly, "then, he also reduced Gu mohuai''s defensive heart... What a good plan?" "Dad, you don''t understand love..." Shen Chu narrowed his eyes slightly. "Chu Zixiao really wants to deal with Gu Beichen for Jian mo." "You don''t even know Gu Beichen. Do you still try to think you know Chu Zixiao?" Shen hang sneered. Shen Chu closed his eyes, "what if I don''t know him?" She turned back and looked at Shen Hangzhi angrily. "The person I don''t know is your father, a father who can send his daughter to the old man''s bed in order to achieve his goal... Just!" The sarcastic face was somewhat broken and helpless. Shen Chu looked back, "what I want to do is my business... And what you want to do is your business. Since you decided to threaten me with that thing again, you have completely overdrawn my expectations for you..." Indifferently put down his words, and Shen Chu left without stopping. Even if the humble could not support her pride, she at least straightened her back at the moment. She has been trying to avoid the original thing, and even thought she would not think of it again. It was just a stain in her life. But in the end? She''s just fooling herself Maserati''s roaring voice shuttled through the roads of Los Angeles, causing discontent sirens everywhere. "Squeak -" After the harsh brake sound, the car stopped at the parking space of Feitian hotel. Shen Chu got out of the car, looked up slightly at the landmark hotel in Los Angeles, smiled coldly at the corners of his mouth, and walked in with the pride brought by high-heeled shoes. Shen Chu went into the elevator and went to the sky garden on the top floor On a midsummer night, the flying sky sky garden is the most comfortable place to eat. Of course, if you are in the mood to enjoy it. In addition to the carefree feeling of the waiter who looked around the restaurant, there was only a carefree piano in the elevator. "Miss Shen, please!" The waiter has a professional smile and bows slightly. Shen Chu stepped forward and sat down opposite Gu Beichen. "Chen Shao, can I have dinner?" Gu Beichen nodded slightly, and the waiter answered to prepare. It''s all beautiful. There''s a sad and cold breath in the air. It''s so heavy that people can''t breathe. "Mo''er and I met in this hotel..." Gu Beichen suddenly opened his mouth, but didn''t look at Shen Chu. He just tilted his head and fell in the hotel garden under the night light. Shen Chu frowned slightly and didn''t want to hear it. "The fate between people is sometimes really hard to tell..." Gu Beichen looked back at Shen Chu. "I asked you to be here today, not to hear about you looking for me, but to tell you..." Gu Beichen didn''t continue to talk, but the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly and looked at Shen Chu''s slightly tight mouth. "What do I want to say today? You already know?" Shen Chu had this feeling inexplicably. "Almost..." Gu Beichen said calmly. Shen Chu sneered, "what do you want to tell me?" "In my life," Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised an arc, "no matter my body or soul, no matter whether Jian Mo is with me or not, I won''t betray her!" Shen Chu''s heart suddenly shook. She looked at Gu Beichen. She had never seen him smile so well... That feeling made people feel false in their dreams, but it made people yearn for it. "You agreed to meet just to say that to me?" Shen Chu sneered. "Yes..." Gu Beichen answered very seriously. "In fact, if you hadn''t stopped at the last moment... Shen Chu," Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and hid his ruthlessness from the bottom of his eyes, "even if it was you, I wouldn''t show mercy." Shen Chu''s face turned pale and lost blood, "you... You know?" "What do you think?" Gu Beichen raised his eyes and recovered his indifference. Shen Chu''s body trembled uncontrollably. She came to Gu Beichen today. In fact, her heart was still contradictory. No matter how her father threatened her, she wanted to get Gu Beichen. It was selfishness and persistence "Don''t try to put your energy on me..." Gu Beichen continued, "in this life, there is no woman except Jian Mo who can share half of my bed..." "You once loved me, but why have you never been so persistent to me?" Shen Chuhong''s eyes. Although she came here today to make a complete end with Gu Beichen, subconsciously, she didn''t want such a result. Chapter 498 Gu Beichen''s ink pupil gradually deepened, "you just appeared beside me when I wanted to stand up... Love?" After he gave a light sigh, his thin lip shallow hooked a indifferent arc, "maybe I was moved at that time, but now I think I''ve never loved you!" "Never loved..." Shen Chu murmured, his eyes full of water mist. "Yes!" Gu Beichen said coldly, "sex is the most direct expression between men and women... Shen Chu, when I was with you, I never looked at you. But Jian Mo is different. Even when I don''t love her, I am full of possessiveness." "She attracts me... You know?" Gu Beichen opened his mouth lightly and didn''t care about Shen Chu''s emotion. "I love her. It''s doomed by the magnetic force... And I''m not an amorous person." Shen Chu''s eyelashes kept trembling, stained with moisture, but didn''t shed tears. She endured stubbornly, and the self mockery at the corners of her mouth became more and more prosperous. "My heart is very small, so I can only accommodate one person..." Gu Beichen said slowly. "Because of this, I resist being occupied. But there is a woman named Jian Mo who inadvertently defeated my defense... You can''t do this." "Gu Beichen, why do you embarrass me?" Shen Chu gritted his teeth, and there was anger in his breath. "It doesn''t matter..." Gu Beichen picked up the glass and sipped. The waiter took the waiter and began to serve. Shen Chu subconsciously turned to the other side. The people who served the dishes didn''t seem to feel the dignity in the breath, but after the etiquette, they gave a slight sign and retreated one after another. "From the beginning of your cooperation with Zixiao, I knew..." Gu Beichen continued, "I want to protect Jianmo. Naturally, I will be prepared." Shen Chu''s self mockery is becoming more and more popular. A man silently does this for a woman... Which is what all women expect. Who dares to say that he doesn''t want to be the only protagonist in the life of an excellent man? "You didn''t do it to me, not because of Shaochen..." Shen Chu smiled, a little tragic, "but I didn''t threaten Jian Mo or even hurt her for the time being, did I?" "Yes..." Gu Beichen did not avoid it. Because of his firmness, Mo Tong seemed to dye with Mo Kong halo, and the darkness sank to the vastness. "She is my bottom line." "But you hurt her..." Shen Chu suddenly laughed. "Even her death has something to do with you." Gnashing her teeth, there was a cold knife as sharp as an ice cone, which could not hurt her alone. "Gu Beichen, you never know how many people have been hurt by your ruthlessness..." Shen Chu smiled sharply. "Jane Mo''s death is your retribution!" Word by word squeezed out of the clenched teeth. Shen Chu ''Teng'' stood up and looked down "I probably shouldn''t have come today." Shen Chu gradually received a sneer, "because I know it''s self humiliation... No matter what I do, I''m just a clown in your Gu Beichen''s eyes. You just watch me jump and occasionally come out to beat my desire for expansion with your indifference." Slightly raised his head and took a deep breath, and Shen Chu touched his lower lip. "When I came, I always thought whether I should give up... Gu Beichen, you won." Drooping his eyes, Shen Chu looked at Gu Beichen coldly, "your indifference finally woke me up completely..." Gu Beichen slightly touched the corners of his mouth. If there was a smile like nothing, that smile showed the deep meaning of complexity. Shen Chu didn''t say anything more, but left a sneer of ridicule and turned away. Just after she stepped down the small ladder, Mo Shaochen, dressed as a waiter, came out. "You are using her..." Mo Shaochen frowned slightly. "Yes!" Gu beichenjun''s face was covered with cold, just like Satan hiding in the dark, ready to devour everything at any time. Mo Shaochen looked at Gu Beichen with some worry, "Beichen?" He didn''t want to see the irrational Beichen, which made him think of the Beichen after he disappeared and came back. Gu Beichen picked up his glass and sipped. The scarlet liquor spread on the taste buds like blood, but in an instant, Mo Shaochen seemed to see the cold smell of a vampire from Gu Beichen. Enrage Shen Chu and force Shen Chu... But they all want Shen Hangzhi to completely embrace Gu mo. He''s waiting to see them kill themselves! Xiao Jing parked the car in lanze garden, and the two people in the car subconsciously looked at the villa Here, there are memories of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo for two years... Memories of the breeding point of love. Xiao Jing looked at Beichen from the rearview mirror and couldn''t bear it. "Chen Shao, go back and have a rest?" Gu Beichen looked at the door. "Go back, I''ll sleep here tonight." "But..." Xiao Jing sighed deeply and said, "OK." Gu Beichen got out of the car. He looked at the parking space with one hand Memory, suddenly rushed up. As long as he said he would come back to lanzeyuan, there would be someone waiting for him with a smiling face. Open the door "Ah Chen, are you back?" Jane Mo smiled and trotted over, "husband, I look like you!" Jane stood on tiptoe and begged Beichen. "I miss you very much too..." Gu Beichen''s evil spirit''s hooked lips and big palm hugged Jane Mo''s waist. He turned around and pressed her on the wall, "... Like your body." Jane Mo smiled and didn''t mind at all. She put her arms on Gu Beichen''s neck and winked like silk. "Tut Tut, the women outside don''t seem to be able to meet you at any time..." she said softly, "my husband is so infatuated with me, I..." Gu Beichen''s thin lip side was hooked with an evil smile and attached to his body... Thin lip has captured Jian Mo''s lips, chattering and running the train. The sound of panting, the fiery sunshine, the Crazy Rhythm, the perfect fit... Filled the whole villa. Two people Jane Mo, as if there is always endless enthusiasm to explain to each other. "Ah Chen, your combat effectiveness is not good today..." "Husband, people can''t, please let go!" "Ah Chen, I''m wrong, I''m wrong... You''re the best, you''re the best of men..." "Who am I?" Gu Beichen asked after looking at Jian Mo who was about to collapse. Jane Mo gritted her teeth, "husband is the best..." Gu Beichen smiled at the corners of his mouth. That smile gradually froze. Bed, or that bed. House, or that house However, Jian Mo, who flatters him and calls her "ah Chen" and "husband", is not around anymore Gu Beichen compared his eyes. The moonlight came in through the window. It seemed that there was a touch of crystal falling, but it made people in a trance. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen opened his thin lips with difficulty. In his hoarse voice, there was no disguise at night. He was completely afraid and sad. "Don''t tell me. I think it''s an illusion that you didn''t leave... It''s too cruel to me..." Chapter 499 "Ah Chen -" A scream came, and Jane Mo suddenly bounced out of bed and sat up. Then I heard the door slam and the light was turned on without warning. The dazzling light made Jane Mo at a loss. She subconsciously closed her eyes. Kani looked at Jane Mo who woke up and breathed out, "are you awake?" Jane Mo got used to it and slowly opened her eyes... She looked at the people at the door blankly. Gradually, her eyes were full of strange confusion, followed by fear. "Who are you?" Jane Mo reflexively stepped back, but behind her was the backrest, and she didn''t have the other party to step back. Carney looked at Jane Mo suspiciously, "who am I?" He wondered, "don''t you remember who I am?" "I don''t know you..." Jane Mo stared. "Why are you here?" Carney''s eyes flashed cunningly, "where is this?" Jane Mo frowned and looked around. "Isn''t this a mid level villa?" Her eyes widened in surprise, and the fear from the bottom of her eyes could not be hidden. Carney frowned slightly... If Jane Mo lost her memory, it''s reasonable that she shouldn''t remember the mid mountain villa. However, if there is no amnesia... It''s too exaggerated to know him in a coma. "Carney?" A faint sound came from the corridor behind. Carney looked sideways. "By no means, Miss Jane is awake..." "Really?" Shi juechi was surprised. He strode over and saw Jian Mo in a state of alert. With a slight frown, Shi Juxi looked at akani. Carney shrugged. "Maybe it''s fragmented amnesia or memory confusion?" He said somewhat indifferent, "unfortunately, what should be forgotten is not forgotten, and what should not be forgotten seems to be forgotten very quickly..." Shi juechi''s eyebrows frowned more and more tightly. He looked at Kani, who was gloating. He stared helplessly. When he looked at Jian Mo, he had recovered his peace. "Remember me?" Shi juechi stepped forward. Jian Mo frowned and watched Shi juechi come over. At the same time, his head suddenly "hummed". "Well..." Jian Mo almost couldn''t bear to hum. His subordinates realized that they covered their temples. Shi Jue Chi suddenly came forward with an arrow step and sat down next to Jian Mo, "what''s the matter? What''s wrong?" Jane Mo''s head was buzzing. She shook her head. Gradually, the sharp feeling slowly disappeared. "How''s it going?" Shi Juxi asked with a wrung eyebrow, his eyes full of worry. Jian Mo slowly looked up, and the black pupil looked at Shi juechi with a trace of confusion "Jane Mo?" Shi juechi called softly. "I''m fine..." Jane Mo''s breath shook her head slightly disorderly. Shi Jue Chi looked at it in the light of his eyes. After a while, he asked tentatively, "remember again?" "Yes." Jane Mo nodded in response, with fine sweat on her forehead. Carney leaned on the door frame with his arms around his chest, and looked at Jane Mo suspiciously. If it is said that it is possible for silence to break the phantom nervous system, but... It is too strange that this situation will also occur after taking silenceds. "Gulu..." Suddenly, the house became quiet. The untimely voice disturbed the original dignified atmosphere. When the three people reacted to what the sound was, Jian Mo''s face turned red. "I..." "I''ll make something to eat," said Shi juechi with a smile. "Do you have any problem washing alone?" Jian Mo''s face was flushed, especially in the light. Embarrassed, she quickly nodded her head and wanted to find a way to get in. "I didn''t eat much before I was unconscious. It''s been more than a day. It''s normal..." Carney said happily looking at Jane Mo''s embarrassment. Jane Mo gave him a cold stare and ignored him. Shi Juxi smiled, got up and walked out... When he came to Carney, he pulled him away. Jane Mo looked at the closed door and lost her mind. She didn''t know whether it was because of sleeping or something. Her body felt a little numb and astringent pain. Just woke up a little confused, she even forgot that she was brought to this isolated place by Shi Juxi. Turn over the quilt and get out of bed. It feels puffy when you step on the ground. Jane Mo didn''t think much, but helped Qiang to the bathroom. Didn''t Shi juechi say he gave her medicine? Why did she faint? And... Will you still be intermittently confused when you wake up? The hot water washed the skin on her face. Jane Mo closed her eyes and leaned powerlessly against the wall She misses ah Chen. She misses him so much. She''s going crazy. And milk bags If the milk bag knows that she is "dead", how to face it? Does the milk bag hate ah Chen? No... No. Ah Chen will not let the milk bag hate him! Hot tears, so inadvertently overflow closed eyes. Jane Mo knows that today''s cowardice will only lead her into despair, but she''s really going crazy with the feeling that she can''t do anything. Slowly open your eyes and turn off the shower. Jian Mo put herself in a bathtub full of water powerlessly... And intruded her face into the water. In this way, even if you shed tears, you can pretend to be strong. Even if Miss, can also be regarded as a gentle hand wrapped around her. "Ah --" Jane foam suddenly floated out of the water... When will she deceive herself and others? She thinks of him, she just recovered from consciousness, thinking every second! ¡­¡­ Shi juechi simply fried two vegetables and heated the porridge he had made earlier. Seeing that Jian Mo hadn''t come out, he couldn''t help frowning. "If you''re worried, go and have a look." Carney had a pair of idle teasing. Shi Jue Chi glanced sideways at him, then turned and went to Jian Mo''s bedroom. Raise your hand and knock on the door No movement. Shi Juxi frowned slightly, increased his strength and knocked on the door... But there was still no movement. With a sudden shock in his heart, Shi Juxi frowned and opened the door The sight quickly crossed a circle, and there was no figure of Jian Mo in the bedroom. Shi juechi looked in the direction of the bathroom. There was a faint light coming from the frosted glass, but there was no movement in it. "Jane Mo?" Shi Juxi strode forward and shouted. However, there was no movement in it. Shi juechi''s pupils diffused in an instant, and there was a thick worry on his face that could not be covered up. "Jane Mo -" Shi juechi subconsciously shouted. At the same time, he already pushed open the door of the bathroom. Almost at the same time, the sound of water came "Ah --" The sound of exclamation followed. At the same time, I heard a ''plop'', and Jane Mo had been covered in the bathtub again. One in and one out can be said to be completely instinctive. The speed makes people have no time to think or see Shi juechi is more conscious of controlling action, and people have retreated. Breathe and become heavy. Shi juechi pulled out the corners of his mouth, and his warm face was suddenly red Chapter 500 Jane Mo was a little frightened in the bathtub, because she hurriedly drilled into the water, and all her hair stuck to her face. She looked a little embarrassed. Just now she just drilled into the water to think about ah Chen. After hearing the rapid cry, she subconsciously came out of the water... Before thinking about it, the door was pushed open. Jane Mo bit her lip. Although both of them reacted quickly, the embarrassment in the atmosphere still made her face unconsciously red and hot. "That..." Shi juechi''s voice came from the outside. "The meal is ready. Come and eat later." Jane Mo answered awkwardly and got up from the bathtub I don''t know if it''s because of this episode. Just now, Jane Mo, who was sad because she missed Gu Beichen too much, was only embarrassed in her heart. When Jian Mo came out of the restaurant, Shi juechi was not there, only Carney. Look around. There''s no one in the living room. "Never take a walk outside..." Carney said without salt. "You clean up after eating." Jane nodded and sat down silently to eat. Shi juechi''s craftsmanship is good, even exquisite. He seems to have a certain picky mood about things or things. The dishes are delicious and the dishes are very exquisite. Just now, Jane Mo also wanted to understand that she shouldn''t be stronger than being sad or complaining about herself here? Gu Beichen can wait for her for four and a half years without knowing love. Shouldn''t she trust him? Jane Mo smiled slightly at the corner of her mouth. That smile was meaningless under determination. After eating, Jane Mo cleaned up the dishes and chopsticks and went outside. The night in the deep mountains is rich, but the starry sky is also extraordinarily pure. When Shi juechi heard footsteps behind him, he looked back and saw Jian Mo, with a gentle smile on his lips. "I''m sorry just now," Shi juechi felt that although embarrassed, apology always needs to be expressed, "I thought..." "I know you''re worried about me." Jane Mo smiles. Shi Jue Chi''s lips moved and didn''t continue the topic, "do you feel better?" "You said you gave me the last pill, but why did I still faint?" Jane frowned. Shi juechi shook his head. "Jian mo..." he pondered before saying, "what would you do if you didn''t live?" "I''m dead. What else can I do?" Jane Mo smiled. Compared with the embarrassment just now, she was obviously relieved. Shi Jue Chi was stunned, "that''s not what I meant..." "I know..." Jian Mo sat down on the swing and shook gently. "Shi juechi, if I really can''t live, can you promise me one thing?" "Huh?" Shi Juxi looked at Jian Mo suspiciously. "I don''t know who you are, and I don''t know your identity..." Jane Mo said, "I only know that you don''t mean any harm to me." Shi Juxi was silent, waiting for Jian Mo to continue. Jane Mo smiled, and the black pupil twinkled like the stars in the ink sky. "After I die, can you pass on your help to Gu Beichen?" Asked Jane mo. Shi juechi''s eyebrows frowned. "I think someone always wants to make him unhappy behind his back..." Jane Mo said with drooping eyes. She still resents Gu Beichen''s kidnapping. The finger unconsciously turned the ring, looked at the diamond ring for a long time, and then wrapped the ring with the palm of the hand. "I thought your wish would be to see him..." Shi juechi sat down on a bamboo chair. "Even if you don''t meet, look behind your back." Jane Mo shook her head and looked at Shi juechi. "As you said, how can I bear to hurt him twice?" "Far away..." Jane Mo smiled. The brilliant smile was like Epiphyllum blooming at night. But after that moment of beauty, it will gradually wither. "He''ll find me!" Jane Mo said with great firmness. Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo quietly, with an indescribable complex emotion in his eyes, "are you so sure?" Jane Mo''s smile suddenly filled the fundus of her eyes She nodded and said, "you must not have someone who loves you very much!" Shi Juxi frowned. "If you feel it, you''ll understand that telepathy." Jane Mo put her toes on her feet and stepped back. Then she raised her feet and the swing shook. "It''s the feeling that even if you''re in the crowd, he can see you at a glance." Shi Jue Chi''s warm face, even the fundus of his eyes, suddenly overflowed with a touch of uncomfortable expectation "Because, in his world, only you..." There was emptiness in the continuous voice, as if Jane Mo had fallen into such a scene at the moment. "Shi juechi, if there is hope, I want to live..." Jian Mo''s nose is a little sour. "I want to be with him, always." The dense water mist from the bottom of my eyes became crystal under the weak night light, but the corners of Jane Mo''s mouth were laughing, "I spend too little time with him... So little that I''m afraid I can''t support each other''s memories." Jane Mo''s eyelashes fluttered gently, but tears were always confined in her eyes. He wants to be more firm with him. However, if everything is lost in life... What is the meaning? ¡­¡­ The smell of cigarettes filled the big room, and the darkness shrouded all, swallowing hope. Gu Beichen stood in front of the window, copying his pocket with one hand and holding a cigarette that had spontaneously ignited a long section of soot in his other hand. The light of the fire flashed slightly, and Gu Beichen suddenly recovered. The cigarette butt had burned his fingers. He twisted the cigarette butt out in the ashtray on the side without changing his face, and slightly closed his sour eyes. Turning around, the darkness shrouded Gu Beichen''s body and gradually walked away The sound of footsteps finally disappeared after the closing of the door, and lanzeyuan returned to calm again. He didn''t have time to design a home for them. Is this home... Going to disappear? "Mo''er, with you and Xiaojie around, it can be called home!" Gu Beichen stood at the gate of the yard, "so I will try my best to bring you back... But you should firmly believe that I will find you, okay?" Gu Beichen murmured and looked up slightly at Mo Kong The crescent moon radiated a bright light and fainted around. "Ah Chen," said Jane Mo, leaning on the hemp rope on the swing, looking up at the crescent moon and gently opening her mouth, "I will try hard and I will wait... Because I believe that you will not be affected by the illusion." Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo quietly. She was a very beautiful woman... For a moment, her whole body was emitting charming light. Because of her firm love and her trust in Gu Beichen. Suddenly, the sound of hurried footsteps disturbed their thoughts. When Shi juechi looked, he saw Kani''s face, some dignified strides, coming out of the house and straight towards him Chapter 501 Kani glanced at Jane Mo, then went to Shi juechi and whispered in his ear. Shi juechi''s face changed slightly, but he only recovered his calm in an instant. "Never less, do you want to..." Carney asked solemnly, but he stopped halfway. Jane Mo got off the swing, "I just walk..." said, smiling and turned to the opposite direction. Although the manor is not big, it is well managed. In addition, at the foot of the mountain, the climate is very good, and you can see wild flowers in full bloom everywhere Kani watched Jane Mo walk away. He simply sat down on the swing and looked at Shi Juxi. "Never less, I don''t think it will take more than two or three days." "Hmm..." Shi juechi said faintly. He put his hands together, put his arms on his legs to support his body, and looked at the back of Jian Mo walking away. Carney subconsciously glanced at Jian Mo, frowned slightly, and then restrained his mind, "that''s it?" "Jian Mo has been in a coma these two days, and I thought about many possibilities..." Shi juechi looked at Carney and lowered his eyes. The dark eyelashes covered the worries at the bottom of his eyes. After a while, Shi Juxi continued, "I''m too reckless..." Just a few words, but it contains too much information. Carney unconsciously frowned, "never less?" Shi juechi got up and walked aside with his hands in his pockets Carney hurried to get up and followed him impatiently. His lips kept moving, anxious to say something. "Shaoqin set a trap for me..." Shi juechi said without doubt, but very sure, "I should have thought of it. He likes people who plan ahead so much. Why doesn''t he want what I want to do?" Carney swallowed all his words and went back with a heavy heart. "What a big game of chess..." Shi juechi sneered and mocked. "From beginning to end, he is a chess player." The waves beat the beach and rocks, and the sound of "clattering" was particularly strange under the night. Under the sunshade, there are small flies flying around the incandescent lamp. Sometimes they can''t stand the temptation of light. They rush to the bulb and fly away quickly On the wooden table, there is a bottle of red wine and a glass filled with red wine. It is placed there from beginning to end without being passive. Shi Shaoqin was wearing a light blue short sleeve and a white casual trousers. Sitting on a wooden chair, his beautiful and flirtatious face became more and more charming under the reflection of incandescent lamps. Compared with patience, I''m afraid few people in the world can control him. Morson stood near and far, and didn''t come until he received a call. "Qin Shao." Mosen handed the mobile phone to Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin took it after glancing indifferently and put it in his ear, "huh?" "Qin Shao, Gu Beichen agreed to let Jian Heng into the family." There was a voice of doubt on the phone. "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin listened and smiled slightly at the corners of his beautiful mouth, as if this was what he wanted to see. "Do you want to..." "No!" Shi Shaoqin interrupted each other. "Anyway, it still needs a little time. It''s best for Gu mohuai to hold Chen down, so I don''t have to do it." The other party answered, "then let the situation develop?" "Yes!" Shi Shaoqin answered, "you don''t have to look at Los Angeles. I''ll go there tomorrow..." after a pause, he continued, "follow the goods from the golden three corners." "OK." Shi Shaoqin hung up after the other party answered. "I''ll arrange a plane to Los Angeles tomorrow," Morson said at the right time Shi Shaoqin made a "um" sound, got up with a soft smile on the corners of his mouth, and walked slowly to the beach He likes Chen to walk step by step with a clear mind when he is so sad. It''s really exciting... It feels like the blood in your whole body is boiling. How long? How long haven''t you felt so excited and expectant? Shi Shaoqin''s smile gradually spread over Junyan and fainted at the bottom of his eyes That kind of smile is from the heart, but it shows the gloom under the cold. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen didn''t stay in lanzeyuan at last. He wanted to find the smell of Jian Mo, but he was afraid to find it. When people are in conflict, they either lose themselves or let themselves be silent. Blues. A bottle of wine, a glass of wine, a person... In the dim light, I feel lonely. Footsteps came, and Gu Beichen took back his thoughts slightly. This is his private area. People who can enter here are people around him. Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen, who was a little decadent. He sighed quietly. He took a cup and sat down across from him and poured himself wine. "Come back so late?" Gu Beichen spoke faintly. "Just finished an operation..." Li Yunze raised the cup slightly and motioned. Gu Beichen glanced at him, picked up the cup, motioned for it, put it on his thin lips and sipped. "When I passed here, I came in to have a rest. I didn''t expect you to be..." Li Yunze put down his glass and lay back on the sofa. "Beichen, you''re not made of iron." "Went to lanzeyuan to sleep for a while and woke up." Gu Beichen didn''t have much camouflage in front of Li Yunze. "Since it is basically confirmed that Jane Mo is not dead, it is always a good thing." Gu Beichen lightly hooked the lower lip corner, a little bitter, "Yunze..." "Huh?" Li Yunze picked his eyebrows and looked at Gu Beichen. "It''s really not easy to be together," Gu Beichen said with emotion. "Don''t let time miss." Li Yunze frowned at the moment, "you can''t worry about your own things. Do you still have time to worry about me?" Gu Beichen deeply coagulated his eyes and didn''t continue this topic after Li Yunze. Everyone has his own difficulties. He can''t impose his own experience on others. Maybe Gu Beichen''s words touched Li Yunze, or he was very tired because of grandma Gu''s funeral during the day, followed by a continuous operation for several hours Next, Gu Beichen was silent, and he, who always liked to joke, became silent. Night, with many people''s thoughts gradually passed. When dawn comes, a new day comes under some gloom. "According to informed sources, Jian Zhanfeng''s son, that is, Jian Mo''s brother, Jian Heng, is Gu Moyuan''s illegitimate son, so as to be confirmed..." in the morning news, the capable voice of the anchor came, "the results of the DNA report have been publicized, and Jian Heng is expected to enter Gu''s house as Gu''s son and divide the emperor and Gu''s assets." "The emperor''s public relations department issued a statement..." soon, news continued, "for the matter of Jian Heng''s son of Gu family, Emperor president Gu Beichen will hold a press conference!" As soon as the news came out, it immediately attracted everyone''s attention in Los Angeles Chapter 502 Press conference. The media of all parties have arrived early and are waiting one by one. "Do you think Gu Beichen will admit it?" Someone asked urgently. "Shouldn''t you admit it?" "But now that the DNA comparison report has been exposed, it doesn''t make much sense not to admit..." "But old lady Gu died, and there was only one Jian truss left in the Jian family. Whether you can enter the Gu family also involves a dead Jian mo... As Gu Beichen, who is in charge of the Gu family, I''m afraid he won''t admit it?" "It makes sense..." someone nodded. "Moreover, it also involves such a large industry as the Emperor... If Jian truss enters the Gu family, doesn''t he want to divide his property?" "It''s me, and I don''t admit it!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The reporters kept discussing and gradually became excited. In fact, there are many illegitimate children in rich families. What''s more, later, the illegitimate son competed with the crown prince for family property... It seems that the family can''t be free from vulgarity. "Chen Shao comes out..." someone said urgently in his voice. Suddenly, the flash was like a locust crossing the border, and the "click click click" kept ringing. Gu Beichen stood in the middle, even without any opening remarks, and didn''t sit down. Reporters have begun to rush forward, holding up radio equipment and asking questions. The eagle''s eyes crossed the crowd fiercely, Gu Beichen''s thin lips closed gently, with a proud face. Gradually, the reporters began to calm down under the invisible pressure of Gu Beichen lingran "As soon as the children of the Gu family in the Jian truss Department said..." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and slowly opened his mouth when the nervous hearts of the media were mentioned in his throat. "The Gu family admitted!" The sound of inverted absorption under the surprise of "wow" came, and everyone forgot to respond for a while. "Jian Heng will be officially renamed Gu Heng," Gu Beichen said coldly. "You can enjoy the family property in your normal identity, but you will not be able to enter the emperor''s board of directors because you have no shares." The reporter began to stir up However, Gu Beichen didn''t give them a chance. After saying the statement, he turned around and took his pocket with one hand. Accompanied by Xiao Jing, he left the press conference. The reporter wanted to ask more questions like crazy, but he was blocked by the security wall at the scene. Gu Beichen left so indifferently, as if everything had nothing to do with him. Los Angeles news was contracted by Gu Beichen''s simple words. Then, rumors raged on people''s sight and senses. The identity recognition of Jian Heng is followed by the questioning of Jian Mo''s identity. Finally, when one guesses that everyone is talking, it gradually becomes the truth. That is... Jian Mo''s death is due to his blood relationship with Gu Beichen! "I don''t believe..." Mu Xiaoran said angrily looking at the report. Xiangwan has been silent, and she doesn''t know whether to believe it or not. Mo Xiaoya and Da Xiong looked at each other and sighed secretly. Then Qiao Zirong shrugged and said, "Jianmo is Jianmo, our friend... That''s all." His words made the tangled people seem to find the backbone in an instant. Yes, no matter what their status, Jane Mo and Gu Beichen are just friends. ¡­¡­ Spencer''s canteen. Jian Jie sat calmly opposite Gu Beichen, eating quietly with chopsticks. Without Jane Mo, the little guy has been depressed recently. Gu Beichen ate very little, and his spirit looked a little tired. "If daddy doesn''t eat, how can he have the strength to find Mommy?" Jane Jie fanned her bright eyes and turned her mouth. "Can you find Mommy without sleeping?" Gu Beichen was stunned, and then his thin lips were astringent. He came to dinner with Xiao Jie, but now he let his son comfort himself? "I''ll adjust." Gu Beichen promised. Jian Jie pursed his small mouth, "what''s the matter with uncle?" Mommy seldom mentioned this uncle before, but he still knows... But it''s all about negative energy. Mommy used to hide things from Daddy. In fact, she wouldn''t let him know anything else. "He''s just your uncle." Gu Beichen didn''t explain much. Jane Jie is very smart and doesn''t need to explain many things to him like ordinary children "Then you admit it?" Jane Jie was a little disgusted. "What do you say about mommy in the news?" There was some complaint in his tone. Gu Beichen put the peeled shrimp into Jian Jie''s bowl, "a person''s bath hope can only be understood when it expands." "Stand high and fall hard?" Jane Jie is light. Gu Beichen took the lead and peeled a shrimp for Jian Jie before wiping his hand and continuing to eat. "Although it''s my uncle, I don''t like it because it''s bad for Mommy." Jane Jie took a stand. Gu Beichen smiled and spoiled Jian Jie''s head. Son, is this telling him to support him and stand by his side? How did Jane Mo teach Xiao Jie to be so sensible? Heredity After all, she is such a reasonable person. "Daddy..." Jane Jie said in silence. Gu Beichen looked at him suspiciously. "I want to go back in the evening..." "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen wondered. Jane Jie fanned her fine eyelashes and said seriously, "sleep with you." "..." Gu Beichen''s eyes suddenly became deep. "Don''t think too much..." Jane Jie''s little face turned a little red, his eyes twinkled with some emotion, and hurriedly pretended to take the food. "I''m just afraid you don''t have the energy to find Mommy." Gu Beichen''s heart seemed to warm up in an instant. He has forgotten to hide his emotions. Can Xiao Jie see it at a glance? In this way, how can Xiaojie rest assured that he can bring Mo''er back? Gu Beichen got up and went to Jian Jie''s side. In the middle of his doubt, he picked him up and put him on his leg, "let you worry about me. My fault... I will correct it." Jianjie''s nose was sour in an instant, so he said stuffy, "Daddy, I haven''t enjoyed the joy of being together as a family... You can''t disappoint me, can you?" No matter how sensible and smart, Jane Jie is just a child. Children have the hope of children... And a complete and beautiful home is his constant hope. Gu Beichen''s heart began to sour, "your wish is all my motivation... No matter how long it takes, or what you have to pay? Xiaojie, daddy will do it." "Hmm..." Jian Jie hugged Gu Beichen with a small hand and answered stiffly. Jian Jie finally didn''t go back with Gu Beichen. Aunt Lan also smoothly entered the school and became a life teacher in his class. Now everything can''t be taken lightly. Gu Beichen invisibly infiltrated the personnel into Spencer. He can''t imagine what it would be like to lose Jane Jie while Jane Mo "leaves". But sometimes... No matter how strong you are, maybe you can''t be foolproof. Chapter 503 As soon as Gu mohuai''s car stopped at the hotel, reporters flocked to the hotel "Excuse me, second master, did you know that Jian Heng was the child of the family early in the morning, so you adopted him?" "What is the relationship between Jian Heng, Jian Mo and Gu family? Could you please explain it?" "There is a rumor that Jian Mo and Gu Beichen are actually brothers and sisters. Is that so?" "Second master... Second master..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Gu muhuai ignored the problems of the media and went into the hotel under the escort of the security guard. Standing inside the glass door, the cool wind slowly dissipates the dry heat outside. Gu mohuai looked back at the media who wanted to come forward, but was stopped by the security guard. After a mocking sneer was put on the corner of his mouth, he looked back and took out his mobile phone and dialed the number. "Where is it?" "The revolving restaurant on the top floor." "Yes!" After Gu muhuai answered, he got on the elevator and pressed the floor number of the rotating restaurant. Standing at the door of the restaurant, Gu mohuai''s sharp eyes crossed like a detector, and finally fell on Jane truss''s table. Under the guidance of the waiter, he sat down opposite Jane truss, "an a meal." "Same." Jane said. "OK, just a moment, please!" The waiter answered and left. "Second uncle," Jane truss was a little breathless, "is this true?" "What''s up?" Gu muhuai picked up the wine glass and sipped it. Jian Heng was a little nervous. "I''m Gu mo... Gu''s child?" "Yes." Gu mohuai calmly put down his glass. "Didn''t Gu Beichen admit it? Besides, there is a DNA report." Jian Heng had thought about Gu mohuai since he knew about it. I''m afraid he wants to talk about things from his "identity" in an attempt to disturb his family. But after the DNA report and Gu Beichen''s press conference this morning, he felt that things were not so simple "When did you compare your DNA?" Jane truss wondered. Gu muhuai smiled. "Is it difficult for me to take your sample?" Jane was stunned and didn''t speak. "No matter what your identity is," Gu muhuai said with some deep meaning, "you just need to understand that the quickest way to stand at the top is the identity that others can''t overthrow." Jane truss frowned and looked at Gu muhuai. For a long time, she couldn''t speak. At the right time, the waiter came up with their meal. Just when the plate was placed, Jian Heng''s mobile phone vibrated. Looked at the call, but there was no name, but it was a familiar number. "Mr. Jane," came Xiao Jing''s lukewarm voice on the phone, "I''m free at five o''clock in the afternoon. Please come to the Emperor... Chen Shao needs to discuss with you about looking back at home." Jane truss was stunned and answered, "OK!" Xiao Jing hung up the phone after greeting him politely. "What?" Gu muhuai asked. Jian Heng received his mobile phone, "Gu Beichen asked me to meet at the emperor at 5 p.m." Gu mohuai slightly put a thin smile on the corner of his mouth, "Jane truss, what I can help you... I can only come here." "Second uncle..." Jian Heng didn''t understand. Gu mohuai''s eyes were slightly deep. "Emperor, you don''t have shares. Naturally, I won''t transfer my name to you. It can be said... It''s no use even correcting your name now." Jane truss didn''t speak, just sneered... He naturally knew this. "But what everyone doesn''t know is..." Gu muhuai slowly lay back on the sofa seat. "Gu''s family has a lot of money in the Swiss bank to deal with the emperor''s emergency." That''s very clear. If you want to move to the root of the emperor, the key lies in the fund of Swiss bank. As a child of his family, Jian Heng naturally has the right to inherit legally ¡­¡­ Morson parked the car on the side of the road, and the air conditioner in the car made a low sound. Although the weather outside is a little gloomy, the dryness and heat in the air are not reduced at all, and it is even more depressing. Shi Shaoqin opened the door and got out of the car. He strolled to the completed villa outside the main body. "Qin Shao..." when the workers saw Shi Shaoqin, they stopped their work and looked solemn and nervous. Shi Shaoqin''s long and narrow eyes looked at the circle indifferently, "how long will it take?" "With the interior decoration, it should be completed in 20 days." "HMM..." Shi Shaoqin said faintly, without saying anything. The workers were silent one by one. They didn''t dare to breathe. After looking at Shi Shaoqin for a while, their eyes finally fell on the "foreman". The foreman murmured and signaled everyone to continue working. Shi Shaoqin looked around and walked slowly to the crescent Lake in front of him. "Qin Shao?" As a close friend of Shi Shaoqin, Mosen knows his habits fairly well. "Surround the whole place..." Shi Shaoqin said faintly. Mohsen frowned slightly and looked around The open place is quiet, because it is a distance from the urban area, and it has not been developed, so there is some "desolation" nearby. "How big is the circle?" Asked Morson, somewhat embarrassed. Shi Shaoqin smiled, "as big as you can." Morson was surprised, but he quickly recovered his calm response. He doesn''t understand Isn''t it the temporary intention of Qin Shao, just a means to get close to Jian Mo? Do you want to live here forever? "In fact..." Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful lips rose slightly in a shallow arc, "the environment here is still very good." "..." Mosen twitched at the corners of his mouth and didn''t speak. Shi Shaoqin squatted down. With a slender, white and bony hand, he took off a small yellow wild flower and said, "did Jue Chi find it?" "The position has been roughly determined..." Morson said. Little yellow flower turned between her fingers, and Shi Shaoqin stood up, "Hey, I really don''t want to see Jue Chi begging me..." Morson frowned. "Qin Shao?" "A Sen..." Shi Shaoqin looked into the distance and his pupils gradually contracted. "There will be no second Gu Beichen in this world." Everyone is different, or the same However, there is always someone who has done something you can''t do. This... Is what people yearn for most but want to crush most. Gu Beichen stood in front of the office window. The smoke between his fingers had burned half. Recently, his addiction to smoking has increased significantly, and the nicotine in the air has plunged him into a fog When the knock came, Gu Beichen thought back and forth slightly, "come in!" At the same time, he raised his hand indifferently and twisted out the smoke in the ashtray. Susan pushed the door and came in. "Chen Shao, the report from Europe and America has come out." Gu Beichen turned and walked over. After quickly reading the materials handed over by Susan, the eagle''s eyes suddenly shot a sharp light, "all acquisition..." his voice was full of the breath of looking at the world, cold-blooded, "I want him... There is no way out." Chapter 504 The situation in Los Angeles is changing rapidly. It seems that everyone doesn''t care about Jian Mo''s death, and all the attention is focused on Jian Heng and the relationship between Jian Mo and Gu''s family. Gu Beichen and Gu Beichen have confirmed their identity in the DNA report. The power of the media and the ability of mass human flesh can not be ignored, but in one day, it was dug out that Su Mo was once Gu Moyuan''s secretary. Then, the "one night" report that was intercepted and suppressed in that year was also dug out. According to the "coincidence" in time, it seems to have confirmed the fact that Jian truss is Gu Moyuan''s child. As for Su Mo, who married Jane Zhanfeng, it is unclear whether he was still involved with Gu Moyuan. Despite the ups and downs in Los Angeles, it did not affect Jane Mo, who was far away in the mountains and did not have any ability and equipment to contact the outside world. "What are you thinking?" Shi juechi handed Jian Mo a cup of freshly squeezed juice. Jane Mo took it. "Thank you." After drinking silently, Jian Mocai said slowly, "I feel that life has been busy and has never been so calm... Just think about the time passed." Shi Jue Chi''s eyes were deep, "memories are easy to make people grow old and greedy." "It''s easy to be confused and sharp if you can''t see the way ahead..." Jane Mo picked her eyebrow. Shi Juxi was stunned and laughed. He is not the kind of person who looks handsome at first sight, but his smile always makes people feel the most comfortable. There are many handsome men around Jane Mo, of all types. Gu Beichen''s cold and overbearing, Su Junli''s gentle sunshine, Chu Zixiao''s self-confidence flying... And the one named Shaoshi is so handsome that I don''t know how to describe it. However, no one can be like Shi juechi. The smile at any time and in any mood can go straight into your heart and make you relaxed in an instant. "Sharp teeth and sharp mouth..." Shi juechi sighed with a smile and joked. "One thing I regret most now..." Jane Mo glanced. Shi juechi looked at her suspiciously, "what?" "The information age is really bad!" Jian Mo said with chagrin, "the photos are all on the mobile phone and won''t be developed at all... So I want to see ah Chen and..." she suddenly paused, "it''s not good to take a picture with me." Shi juechi had no doubt about the pause of Jian Mo, but his eyes were slightly deep and changed the topic. "It is estimated that we will leave here these two days..." "Yes." Jane was a little angry. "Not curious?" Shi Juxi asked with a smile. Jian Mo sighed, "where there is no ah Chen, it''s the same for me..." With that, she subconsciously raised the juice cup and drank again. "Well..." Suddenly, Jian Mo felt the stomach spasm out of control, and then a disgusting emotion came up. Shi juechi frowned when he saw Jian Mo quickly put down the juice cup and ran to the bathroom. "What happened to her?" Carney just came back from the outside and saw the sound of vomiting after Jane Mo hurried into the bathroom. Shi Juxi shook his head with a dignified face, "it may be a drug reaction." Carney leaned on the cabinet with some inertia arms around his chest, looked at the direction of the bathroom and tilted his mouth, "if it''s silenceds responding, never less..." he looked at Shi juechi, gloating on his face, "Congratulations, you''re right." "..." Shi juechi stared at Carney angrily. "When is it, and I''m still in the mood to joke." Carney shrugged. "Are you kidding? Now your concerns are there." Shi juechi''s eyebrows tightened more. He wanted to go over and have a look, but he was afraid it would be inconvenient. Jane Mo lies on the washbasin and vomits all the time... But she can''t vomit anything. Her uncomfortable faces were twisted together, and there were faint red blood in her eyes. "Oh..." Just stopped, a period of convulsions, Jane foam couldn''t stand lying on the pool and began to retch. After all, Shi juechi came over uneasily. "Drink water smoothly?" Shi juechi handed the water cup to Jian Mo and gently stroked her back with his gentle palm, trying to make her feel more comfortable. Jane Mo got up slightly, "thank you..." she was a little embarrassed, but she couldn''t take care of it now because she was uncomfortable. After drinking water, I really feel much better about nausea. "The medicine is estimated to have side effects..." Shi juechi sighed softly. "Will it go in a good direction or a bad direction? I can''t give you the answer now." Jane Mo was silent, and there was an astringent pull at the corners of her mouth. She shook her head and said, "pray, but don''t expect." Six words, said her helplessness. Shi Juxi sighed softly, "clean up and I''ll wait for you outside." Jian Mo nodded and watched Shi Juxi leave before putting down the water cup Looking at herself in the mirror, Jane Mo subconsciously put her hand on her abdomen... Just why, she didn''t think deeply. Gargle, wash your face, and after finishing... Jane Mo dragged her uncomfortable and tired body out of the bathroom. "Is it any better?" Shi Juxi asked with concern. Jane Mo''s face is not very good-looking, but her obvious nausea has been alleviated a lot. But when she saw the glass of juice on the table, she felt a little uncomfortable Carney quickly went to get the juice cup, "will it be overcome by things like vitamins?" He finished unintentionally and looked at Shi Juxi. Shi juechi shook his head. Shaoqin had many capable people under him. He didn''t know what would happen He is not sure whether silenceds can completely solve silence. Only one step at a time The weather in Los Angeles is getting more and more dull. The feeling of dryness and heat without release makes people feel depressed. Jane truss parked the car in the parking space in front of the emperor''s gate and got out of the car. Slightly raised his head, his eyes fell on the emperor''s logo through sunglasses, and a slight smile was put on the corners of his mouth. It doesn''t matter to him whether he really cares about his family or not What matters is what this identity brings. So... He''s the one who takes care of his family, Gu Heng! Taking back his sight, Jian Heng stepped into the emperor with a confident step. Get on the elevator and press the number on the 79th floor. This figure is of great significance to the emperor, even Los Angeles... Or the whole country and the world. A person in power can only look down on the world from a high altitude! The elevator arrived with a "Ding" sound. Looking at the slowly opened elevator door, Jane truss disappeared in her eyes under sunglasses, uncontrollable excitement. That kind of excitement comes from the fact that his life will become different after he steps here... Even, he may break away from Gu mohuai''s control and become the one who really controls human desires! Chapter 505 "Mr. Jane, please!" Susan said with a professional expression on her face. "What do you call me?" Jane Joong coldly took off her sunglasses. Susan''s quiet little lip hook, "Mr. Jane!" Jian Heng sneered, "there''s something wrong with your title..." he hummed and looked forward indifferently, "it seems that my name is Gu Heng now!" Susan smiled. That smile was still a professional smile for a secretary who could turn things around. "Gu?" Susan whispered and said nothing more. She just made an arc with her hand, "please!" Jian Heng snorted coldly, without saying anything, and strode to Gu Beichen''s office. Not long after he went in, Xiao Jing came out. Seeing Susan''s cold face, she frowned slightly, "what''s the matter?" As he asked, he looked back at the closed office door. "Expect me to call him ''Mr. Gu''?" Susan sneered. "He doesn''t deserve it!" "It''s not worth matching, but also Chen has the final say..." Xiao Jing said, "the man has already taken the lead in the tea room, and then put the coffee powder into the coffee machine before he said," Chen is busy with sorting out the emperor''s affairs, and looking for the little wife. You should not look for it. " Susan looked at the coffee machine. "Xiao Jing, tell the truth..." she endured it and said in the end, "do you think Chen Shao lied to herself, or... Is Mrs. Shao really not dead?" Xiao Jing looked at Susan seriously, "I believe Chen Shao!" In a word, it is blind obedience and trust. "Send it in..." Xiao Jing picked up the cooked coffee and looked at Susan who was still stunned. Susan reacted and sighed, "Xiao Jing, to some extent, I don''t want Mrs. Shao alive... If chenshao still needs to find Shi Shaoqin." Then, with a slightly heavy face, she took the coffee and turned to go outside. "Susan..." Xiao Jing''s voice came from behind, "you put the cart before the horse." Susan stopped doubtfully and looked back at Xiao Jing. "Chen Shao goes to find Shi Shaoqin," Xiao Jing said in a dignified voice, "because of Mrs. Shao. If... Mrs. Shao dies, do you think Chen Shao can come back alive?" Susan''s face changed in an instant She didn''t really want Jian Mo to die, but she didn''t want Chen Shao to go to Shi Shaoqin with a slim hope. However, she forgot... If Jane Mo died, would Chen Shao completely lose his faith. Susan didn''t say anything. She just turned around silently and sent coffee to the office. Susan and Xiao Jing don''t know what Gu Beichen and Jian Heng talked about. However, after two hours of talking, when Jane came out, she looked like a spring breeze. The sound of "Ding" came from the timely arrival of the elevator. Susan subconsciously looked in the direction of the elevator and saw Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi come out. His face changed in an instant. Before he reacted, he heard a sharp voice. "Why are you here?" CEN Lanxi was like a cockfight, and her hair blew up. "Why can''t I be here?" Jian truss sneered at Gu Moyuan immediately, and then looked at Gu Moyuan. At that moment, the light in his eyes was complex. No matter what the purpose is now, this man... May really be his own father, isn''t he? Compared with Cen Lanxi''s anger and Jian truss''s entanglement, Gu Moyuan obviously has a touch of water mist in his eyes. His lips moved and wanted to say something, but because Cen Lanxi was around, he didn''t dare. "You are not qualified, more unworthy..." after Cen Lanxi roared, he looked at Xiao Jing, "call security and drive him out. What cat and dog can come on the emperor president floor?" "Lan Xi..." Gu Moyuan said. Anyway, he''s sorry for Lanxi. However, Jian Chang is indeed his son! "Gu Moyuan, shut up..." Cen Lanxi roared like crazy, "if you want to recognize this son so much, you can recognize it. We''re divorced. I''ve been with Beichen!" "Have you had enough?" The cold voice came at the right time. Gu Beichen stood at the door of the office with one hand and a pocket. His cold face was so indifferent that there was no expression. "Gu Heng, go first... Remember what I said to you." Jane truss nodded and looked at Cen Lanxi with some frivolous eyes. She was proud at the bottom of her eyes. CEN Lanxi wanted to say something, but Gu Moyuan held her. Looking at Jian truss entering the elevator, the elevator door closed and then released his hand. His face was green and red, looking at Cen Lanxi. Xu Shi was angry enough after Jian Heng''s affair was exposed. Cen Lanxi stared at Gu Moyuan indifferently and went to Gu Beichen. "Have you eaten yet?" CEN Lanxi looked painfully at Gu Beichen, whose cheek was obviously concave and lost brilliance, "let''s have dinner together?" "I''ll give Gu Heng a party tomorrow evening," Gu Beichen said. "If you can''t manage your emotions, you can''t come." Then he turned back to the office, "I''ll make an appointment with Shaochen and won''t have dinner together." Gu Beichen went back to the office, took his suit and coat, looked at Xiao Jing and left together. Susan looked at Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi, who were stunned in place, and pulled at the corners of her mouth... She only felt that the family was so strange and embarrassed now. ¡­¡­ "It''s time to eat..." Carney came out of the kitchen with vegetables and shouted to Jane Mo, who was sitting on the sofa reading the famous works. Jane Mo answered, closed her book and walked over. "In fact, I can cook..." Jane Mo said with a curl of her mouth. Carney smiled. "I don''t like cooking. That''s all he likes... What a pity to be deprived?" Jane smiled and went to wash her hands without saying anything. When they came out, Carney and Shi juechi had brought out the rest of the dishes and a pot of rice. There is a strong aroma of braised meat in the air. The smell is tempting to the appetite. Jian Mo''s first reaction was that Shi Juxi must have made an ultra-high standard of this dish In the second reaction, when the eyes fell on the seemingly delicious braised meat, an overwhelming emotion surged up. "Well..." Jane Mo quickly covered her mouth with her hand, turned and ran to the bathroom. "Oh..." Shi juechi and Kani were stunned with chopsticks in one hand and soup spoon in the other, and then looked puzzled face to face. "Oh..." The sound of retching came. Shi juechi put down his chopsticks and strode over. Looking at Jian Mo, who was lying on the glass platform and retching in pain, Shi Juxi''s eyebrows gradually tightened up. Kani also came over at the right time and looked at Jane Mo''s sad look with doubts on her face. Shi juechi motioned Kani to get the glass of water, and then went in to help Jane Moshun with his back. "The reaction was a little big..." he murmured worried. Carney brought the water. "I said... Can''t you be pregnant?" Chapter 506 Carney''s words exploded in a small bathroom like a bomb Shi juechi, who was going to receive the water cup, had his hand in the air and looked at Carney in surprise. Even Jian Mo, who was retching, forgot. He suddenly turned around in embarrassment and held the glass platform to look at Carney. The black pupil was filled with light that didn''t know what emotion it was "Why are you all looking at me like this?" Carney looked innocent. "I''m just guessing." He glanced. "Seeing some food makes you retch. Isn''t that some symptoms of a woman''s pregnancy?" "Have you ever seen a woman get pregnant?" Shi Juxi ridiculed me. Carney shrugged. "I haven''t seen it or heard of it..." he looked at Jian Mo, "say, your woman is not pregnant. What... What... What''s your name, big aunt or something, won''t you come?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Carney said with a serious face. At that time, Shi juechi and Jian Mo twitched at the same time, looking at Carney like a monster. Then Jane Mo''s face turned red. "You can go..." Shi juechi said with a disdain on his face, took the water cup in Carney''s hand and stared. Carney looked innocent, but he didn''t refute anything. He shrugged and went out first. "Drink some water first?" Shi juechi broke the embarrassment and said. Jane Mo took the water cup and looked at the water but didn''t move for a long time. She was even more nervous. It seems almost two months since her last aunt came After giving birth to the milk bag, she basically postponed it for a few days or a week every time. In addition, she didn''t pay attention to this one after another Now, even with the delay, it has exceeded at least ten days. Hand, subconsciously touch the lower abdomen, and then curl up gradually. The hand holding the water cup has also begun to tighten up, and Jane Mo can even feel the rhythm of her heart shaking. "What should I do..." After a while, Jane Mo said these three words in a daze. Almost at the same time, Shi juechi understood what she meant by "how to do". Just as he was about to speak, Shi Juxi''s pupil suddenly widened, and quickly caught the water cup that slipped from Jian Mo''s hand. Jian Mo also reacted, looked at the eye stone and said, "I..." "Not sure yet, is it?" Shi juechi''s voice was a little frozen, "I asked Carney to find a doctor." Jane Mo held her breath and nodded. Her face was a little bad. If she is really pregnant, what will she do? No matter what medicine you took before, I''m afraid it will be bad for the fetus, right? However, this is her and ah Chen''s child Maybe she will accompany her children! Not sure yet. Jane Mo''s mind is in a mess. "Go out and have something to eat first," Shi juechi said softly. "Anyway, your body is the foundation to ensure the rest." Jian Mo was already confused. Shi Juxi said nothing. She nodded numbly and mechanically followed her out. Carney has withdrawn some of the heavier dishes to the kitchen, leaving only two vegetables and a soup on the table. The taste is not "pungent", and Jane foam has no obvious reaction, but she still doesn''t have much appetite. After eating, Carney consciously went to the village to find a doctor Fortunately, we are going to leave tomorrow. It doesn''t matter even if the doctor will reveal his whereabouts... As long as the controller doesn''t leave tonight. ¡­¡­ Blues. Gu Beichen waited for Mo Shaochen for nearly an hour, but no one arrived. Looking at the time, Gu Beichen called Mo Shaochen... But no one answered until the prompt tone disappeared. "Chen Shao..." at the right moment, Xiao Jing came in from the outside. "There''s news from the police station that Li Xiaoyue has been detained." Gu Beichen glanced at Xiao Jing and was stunned for a second. Without saying anything, he got up and walked out. In half an hour. Gu Beichen has arrived at the police station where Li Xiaoyue has been detained. The policeman on duty was stunned when he saw him and hurried forward. "Chen Shao..." "Where''s Li Xiaoyue?" Gu Beichen spoke calmly. The policeman was stunned, then pulled the corners of his mouth and said, "in the interrogation room..." "What procedures does she need?" Gu Beichen asked directly. "This..." the policeman was embarrassed. "She is suspected of murder. I''m afraid she can''t be guaranteed!" "Murder?" Gu Beichen said softly. Seeing the policeman''s embarrassed nod, he said coldly, "I want to see someone first." The police officer doesn''t know how to deal with it. The person in front of him can''t afford to offend. However, the murder suspect can''t be seen casually! Fortunately, the group leader on duty came out, and the policeman quickly handed the hot potato to the group leader. "Chen Shao..." the group leader has experienced great storms and is obviously calm. "Lawyer Mo has also come. After all, Li Xiaoyue is suspected of murder. The guarantor can''t meet... I''m afraid it will be after the inquiry." Gu Beichen didn''t worry when he heard that Mo Shaochen was also there. Seeing his nod, the policeman hurried forward and said, "Chen Shao, why don''t you have a drink first and wait a minute?" Gu Beichen went to the waiting room with the police officer first. Xiao Jing didn''t need his explanation. He had gone to understand that Li Xiaoyue became a murder suspect. Within half an hour, Li Xiaoyue''s trial was not over, and Xiao Jing had returned. "Related to Yang Ziyu''s case, the prisoner who killed Yang Ziyu suddenly died... All doubts point to Li Xiaoyue." Xiao Jingyi said briefly. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and didn''t say anything. He just waited quietly for the trial to be over. Since Shaochen is here, it means that he will become Li Xiaoyue''s defense lawyer. To be unfair, with him, even if this man was really killed by Li Xiaoyue, she didn''t kill him in the end However, no one likes being wronged. Besides... Li Xiaoyue himself is a criminal defense lawyer? In the gloomy weather, Los Angeles is dignified, as if there are always endless things to solve. The shining stars are not visible at the foot of the mountain. The doctor is an old Chinese doctor in the nearby village. He is inconvenient to move. However, it is said that his medical skills are good... The villagers like to see him. The old Chinese doctor felt Jian Mo''s pulse, while Shi juechi sat aside, inexplicably and unconsciously nervous. Carney leaned on the pillar not far away, his arms around his chest, and kept paying attention to the change of Jane Mo''s expression. Should this woman be so strong? Pretend or can you really face the unknown results? The old Chinese doctor raised his hand at the right time and listened to Shi Juxi ask, "doctor, what''s the result?" Jane Mo''s lips and her eyes looked at the old Chinese medicine without blinking. The old Chinese medicine frowned suspiciously and put the boring fingers on Jian Mo''s pulse again Jane Mo''s heart was lifted up with this time, and her breath was carried. About five or six minutes later, the old Chinese medicine stopped his hand again and said slowly, "although the breath is very weak..." he looked at the eye stone and looked at Jian Mo, "but it can be concluded that you are about six weeks pregnant!" Chapter 507 When Jian Mo heard the words of the old Chinese medicine, her mood was not as complicated as expected, and even... Very calm. For a moment, it seemed as if all her previous complex emotions had disappeared. "However, the breath of the fetus is so weak that I can hardly detect the breath of the child..." the old Chinese medicine frowned. "If you have conditions, you''d better go to a better hospital system for examination." The old Chinese medicine looked at Jian Mo''s face, "moreover, your face doesn''t look very good..." Jane Mo twitched slightly at the corner of her mouth and didn''t speak. The old Chinese medicine didn''t say anything more. After getting up and explaining, he left without even prescribing the medicine. "Tonight, I''m afraid I''ll wrong you all night..." Carney said after sending the old traditional Chinese medicine outside. The old Chinese doctor looked at Carney not surprisingly. "Is there a persistent disease on that lady?" He asked curiously, "just gave her a pulse. Her breath is very strange." Carney smiled, "if you don''t ask what you shouldn''t ask, it will affect your future life..." The old Chinese medicine didn''t ask any more. "Looking back, someone asked you, what are you doing here..." Carney took the old traditional Chinese medicine to the other side of the room, "how do you answer?" The old Chinese medicine pondered for a while before slowly saying, "someone has a fever..." Carney accidentally looked at the old Chinese medicine and whispered, "it''s quite good." Inside the house, there was a dignified silence in such a large space. Jane Mo didn''t speak, looked down and instinctively fell on the diamond ring Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo and didn''t speak, as if giving her space and time to think. I don''t know how long it took until the two people were a little sour in the same posture. "What are you going to do?" Shi Juxi asked with a sigh. Jane Mo shook her head, "I don''t know..." she raised her right hand and gently stroked the diamond ring, as if waiting for Gu Beichen''s answer. After Shi juechi looked at the ring, he said slowly, "the medicine may have a serious impact on the child... Foam..." Shi Juxi stopped talking, and from the beginning, his stiff "simple foam" became an intimate "foam" inexplicably. Jian Mo didn''t pay attention to the change of Shi Jue Chi''s name, but made a self mockery at the corners of his mouth. "I know what you want to say..." Jane Mo inhaled and laughed at herself. "A few days ago, I cheated him with a ''fake'' pregnancy, hoping he wouldn''t push me away. Unexpectedly..." she put her hand gently on her lower abdomen, "... My little life is really in my body." Shi juechi looked at the self mockery on Jian Mo''s face and turned into a smile belonging to his mother''s aura. Gradually, his eyes became blurred "Foam?" "Our hearts are connected," said Jane Mo with a smile. "So it''s a lie, not a lie." Shi juechi suddenly didn''t know what he was going to say. He was in a turbid world. Although, under the protection of Shaoqin, his unique world is not dirty, but it is not pure But now when he heard such simple words as Jian Mo, he was uncontrollably a little sour. "Then..." Shi Juxi wants to talk and stops. However, even if we don''t want to, when some facts are in front of us, we have to face them. "Child, want..." Shi juechi bit his lower teeth. "Child, do you want it or not?" Jian Mo slowly looked up at Shi Jue Chi, "I want it!" What she said was very firm, but the sadness that followed was heartbreaking. "But... I don''t know if I can get him!" When Jian Mo said this sentence, tears'' brushed ''fell out. Jane Mo smiled, but her tears couldn''t stop. "Shi juechi, do you understand my mood?" Jane Mo''s smile became bitter. "How I want to wait for the child''s growth day by day with him? I don''t want me to accompany the child alone. I want to be with him... Do you understand?" Chi Shi gradually frowned and never stopped saying a word. Jane Mo closed her eyes and stubbornly cut off her tears in the light and darkness. "Yes or no... For me, it''s the most difficult choice in the world." Jane Mo''s lips kept trembling. She tried her best to forbear, but she couldn''t suppress her sadness. "Facing ah Chen, I can say for sure... Even if I die, I want him!" Jane Mo suddenly opened her eyes, her eyes glistening with tears, "but in the face of this child, want and don''t..." her lips trembled and couldn''t go on. Shi juechi didn''t say anything, but came forward and gently took Jian Mo''s trembling body into his arms. Feeling his body trembling in his arms, Shi juechi closed his eyes, "Mo Mo, we can wait... Maybe the situation is not as bad as expected, isn''t it?" "Shi juechi, you don''t understand..." Jian Mo said with trembling lips, "I''m not afraid of pain. I''m afraid of loss and greed!" The greater the expectation, the greater the final disappointment. But how can she bear to give up now? Chen, what should I do? What am I going to do ¡­¡­ At night, there is always a heavy light that people can''t see. The tea in front of Gu Beichen has cooled down, and several cigarette butts have been scattered in the ashtray. Footsteps came. When Gu Beichen lifted his eyes, the door of the reception room was opened. Mo Shaochen looked at Beichen and came in. "What''s going on?" Gu Beichen spoke indifferently. Mo Shaochen coagulated his eyebrows, "the situation is complex..." Gu Beichen frowned and waited for Mo Shaochen to continue. "Go out and talk about it..." Mo Shaochen sighed softly. "I told Xiao Yue that I shouldn''t embarrass her for the time being." Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing, who nodded clearly and left the conference room first. Mo Shaochen looked back and said nothing. Beichen''s uneasiness is normal. Compared with him, his ability coverage is obviously not comprehensive. Besides Li Xiaoyue is Jianmo''s only bosom friend. Now Jianmo is gone. Beichen takes Xiaoyue as his responsibility. Gu Beichen left in Mo Shaochen''s car. They didn''t stop until they reached the Luocheng River Bridge. "Xiaoyue killed..." Mo Shaochen''s voice was a little heavy, and his sight to Gu Beichen was even more frozen, "although it was unintentional." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but calmly took out a cigarette and lit it. "It''s best not to kill, kill... It will turn her into not to kill." "It''s the biggest problem that she can''t pass the psychological barrier," Mo Shaochen frowned. "In addition, I''m afraid she can''t get along in the legal profession." "What do you think of it?" Gu Beichen flicked the ash calmly. Mo Shaochen''s voice was dignified. "It should be Jin Shuman''s Bureau... Who guided Xiao Yue." "A clown!" After Gu Beichen spoke coldly, he took out his mobile phone, turned his slender and thick fingers on the screen, and sent a text message. Mo Shaochen immediately frowned, "what are you going to do?" Chapter 508 "Find some people to go to jail with her..." Gu Beichen received his mobile phone while speaking indifferently. Mo Shaochen looked at Gu Beichen in amazement, "Beichen?" "This may be a game..." Gu Beichen threw away the smoke and twisted it out with his feet. "The purpose is not Xiaoyue." "Me?" Mo Shaochen reacted immediately. He will not ignore Xiaoyue''s affairs. The final result must be that he will be her defense lawyer At the trial, he was confident that he would turn this "homicide" into insufficient evidence and unable to convict. Then, more evidence may be exposed... And then he will be dragged into the water. Whether he has this lawyer''s certificate is not the ultimate goal, but... He can''t help Beichen. If so, the purpose of the person behind it is too terrible. "You are looking for me today..." Mo Shaochen suddenly thought of it. "Tomorrow evening, I''ll give Jian Heng a reception," Gu Beichen said indifferently. "Review the rights of your family and draw up the contract." Mo Shaochen frowned slightly, "Beichen, he..." "No, not at all!" Gu Beichen said indifferently and stood next to the fence. Looking at the dark river in the night, his thoughts were a little heavy. Propose here and find "Mo''er" here. The Los Angeles River is really a "good" place. "I see." Mo Shaochen answered, "I''ll send it to you tomorrow morning." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered. After Mo Shaochen sent Gu Beichen back to the villa in the middle of the mountain, he left without stopping. The more things you do, the more you need to be calm... Otherwise, you don''t know when to transfer into the vortex. Rich and powerful families look bright and infinite. But how many people can see the hardships behind it? Gu Beichen took a bath and came out, just wearing a bathrobe. Under the light, the wheat colored texture shows the charm of firmness. He went out of the bedroom. The empty room was originally the one he was most familiar with all these years... But he was not used to it in just two or three months. His eyes drooped and fell on the table. "Husband, I still have a design drawing not completed..." Gu Beichen subconsciously raised his mouth, and there was a surprise in the depths of the ink pupil. Reflexively, I wanted to go downstairs, but I just moved. Jian Mo sitting at the table disappeared... In front of me, it became empty again. The surprise at the bottom of his eyes was instantly covered by loss. Did he have an illusion? Gu Beichen mocked himself for his weakness. After hooking the corner of his lips, he turned slightly and dragged some heavy body forward But when I came to Jian Mo''s study, I found that I had gone in the wrong direction. Looking at the closed door, Gu Beichen sighed and pressed down the door handle to enter. When the light is turned on, the purpose is to put a pile of design sketch paper and some drawing tools on the desk. Gu Beichen walked over, fingers gently across the table, closed his eyes... Covered all the sadness in the bottom of his eyes. If a person falls into his own memory or illusion... Does it represent his cowardice? Gu Beichen suddenly opened his eyes and a cold light suddenly appeared. From the moment he decided to stand up, cowardice no longer belongs to him! Gu Beichen didn''t think any more and turned to leave... Only by solving the things here as soon as possible can he find Mo''er as soon as possible. Xiangwai must settle in first! Suddenly, Gu Beichen''s footsteps suddenly stagnated. Frowned and looked at him slowly His eyes fell on a piece of paper on the other side. He walked over and picked it up. Looking at the picture that looks like a two-dimensional code and doesn''t seem to be a two-dimensional code, Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly. For a while, Mo''er seemed to be studying this thing. Only then could he draw a QR code for her and give her unique romance. This Gu Beichen wondered and took the paper out of Jianmo study. Night, more and more heavy. In the early morning, the gloomy weather in Los Angeles finally began to rain. It''s not big. The beating on the window is rhythmic and makes people''s heart follow. Los Angeles has been plunged into a world of water and fog, but the distant mountains are still covered with stars. Jane Mo stood in front of the bedroom window and didn''t sleep all night She asked herself whether the child wanted it or not all night. "Baby, tell mommy what I''m going to do?" Jane Mo gently fanned her astringent eyes, "I left the milk bag selfishly, and I also want to leave you selfishly... But if the harm of drugs to you makes you unable to bear the world, what should I do?" The knock of "Dong Dong" came suddenly, showing anxiety in a hurry. Jane Mo looked back and walked over to open the door Seeing that Jane Mo is still wearing the clothes of last night, Shi juechi doesn''t have to think that she didn''t sleep. "Go!" Shi juechi said only one word. "Where are you going?" Jane Mo asked, her eyes full of doubts. Shi juechi came forward and grabbed Jian Mo''s wrist. "There''s no time to explain..." he said, pulling her out. Jane Mo didn''t know whether she was made nervous by Shi Juxi, who had always been so indifferent, and the whole person''s nerves coagulated. Shi juechi took Jian Mo out of the small manor, and saw Kani running back in a hurry from outside. "By no means. It''s surrounded outside." Said Carney in a dignified voice. Shi Jue Chi''s eyes narrowed abruptly, then opened and shot fiercely in front At this moment, the East has just revealed the white belly of the fish. If a person is sleeping, he is the least alert at this time. If Mo Mo hadn''t been found pregnant yesterday, I''m afraid he wouldn''t have been sleepless all night. "What should I do?" Carney asked. Now I don''t know whether silenceds is effective or not. If Qin Shao takes her back to the Mo palace, Jane Mo won''t say whether it''s dangerous or not... First of all, Gu Beichen will be bound by her hands and feet. Shi juechi''s face was already dignified. I thought it would be discovered as soon as tomorrow, but I didn''t expect it to be so soon. If the periphery is wrapped, it is almost impossible to take Jian Mo away from here "Turn off all the equipment." Shi juechi said calmly. "It''s off." Carney answered quickly. Their mobile device will be searched in a specific range. As soon as they come back from exploring the message, they have turned it off. "Go ahead and talk..." Shi juechi said, pulling Jian Mo back. In the yard, it''s too easy to expose. Just after they entered the house, several people were already standing at the gate of the manor. "Go in now?" Someone asked with almost no tone of voice. The crowd was silent, and the talent standing in the middle said: "personnel spread, let''s go in and take people..." "Yes!" Those who took the lead in standing at the door are as bright as a torch and move like a leopard. They are already close to the house The man in the middle looked at the closed door, raised his hand and made two gestures... He saw the people on both sides spread apart. He came forward and gave a look. At the same time, the two people who were hidden by the window jumped up respectively, hit the glass and rolled in... Almost at the same time, the door was kicked open. Chapter 509 The empty room was filled with treachery. After the head''s eyes crossed sharply, he said coldly: "search!" As soon as his voice fell, the people who came in had dispersed, but in a moment, all the houses had been searched. "No Jue Shao and Jian mo were found." "No one found..." "Not found!" With the reports coming out one by one, the leader narrowed his eyes slightly, and his eyes were a little dark. He pressed the intercom button. "Did you find anything less?" "No!" "No..." Voices from all directions came from the walkie talkie, and the head''s face was already dark. "Can people suddenly disappear?" He snorted coldly. Everyone drooped their eyes slightly and didn''t answer. Now the situation is... It''s clear that we see that we will never take Carney and Jane Morse into the house, but now they''re gone. The wheezing sound of "hoo, hoo, Hoo" became particularly heavy during the running. Jian Mo was pulled by Shi Juxi while looking back and subconsciously touching the position of his abdomen. The three men were interspersed in the woods. They didn''t know how long they had run. Jian Mo couldn''t run anymore, and Shi Jue Chi stopped. "Have a rest first..." Shi juechi also gasped slightly. Carney leaned on the tree trunk like nobody else, and looked at Shi Jue Chi suspiciously, "Jue Shao, when did you arrange that secret way?" "In order to hide..." Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo and said without saying Shi Shaoqin''s name, "I forgot what the man did." Shaoqin protects him too much. He occasionally wants to get rid of that protection When I was a child, I thought carefully, so I preset secret passages in many houses. Unexpectedly, I still used them. "Who is it?" Jane Mo asked with some patience. Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo, "I don''t know it''s good for you for the time being..." he paused, and then said, "when there''s no way, I''ll tell you." Jian Mo doesn''t have much defense against Shi juechi. Sometimes people have a strong sixth sense... She can feel that he is good to her. "You can''t stay here long..." Carney raised his eyebrows and reminded, "I''m afraid people will arrive in a short time." Can''t go up to heaven and escape to the ground. Suddenly, three living people disappeared from the bottom of their eyes. How can Qin Shao''s people not search like a carpet? "Let''s go..." Jane Mo got up. No matter what the other party''s purpose is, she has feelings and must have something to do with ah Chen. "Are you okay?" Shi juechi asked with concern, subconsciously looking at Jian Mo''s belly. Jane Mo gritted her teeth and had a sad firmness at the bottom of her eyes, "let God decide!" If the child is tough, she will... If she is destined not to be with her, she will not suffer with the child! Such a decision is cruel to Jane mo... But she has no choice! Shi Juxi saw through Jian Mo''s idea and wanted to say something. At last, the corners of his lips just moved and didn''t say. Took her hand, not the wrist this time. Jane Mo subconsciously wanted to break free, but she moved, but she didn''t pull it out. Shi juechi didn''t seem to know that she was holding her hand and didn''t feel Jian Mo''s break away. He took her forward Jane Mo felt that she was being hypocritical at the moment. She pricked the corners of her mouth and followed Shi Juxi forward. The rising sun has been splashing on the earth with heat waves, but only a few strands penetrate the lush trees. "Can you hold on?" Shi juechi asked anxiously when he saw that Jian Mo''s face was wrinkling and his eyebrows were tied together. Jane Mo shook her head, "I''m fine..." "Hold on," Carney looked back. "It''s almost there." This is coming. Where are you going... Jane Mo is in no mood to explore at the moment. She has good physical strength, but she''s just good. After running so long on the mountain road, she has no strength... Besides, she didn''t sleep all night. However, Carney''s "almost here" still gave her hope. Although, this "fast" is a little far away for Jane mo. When the three stood by the river, Jane Mo looked at a motorboat on it. At that moment, her tense mood fell down. "Come on..." Carney hurried. Shi juechi took Jian Mo and got on the motorboat. Carney immediately jumped on it. After starting, he controlled the motorboat and left. Just as the motorboat disappeared into the nearby view, the people who had surrounded the small manor ran out of the woods one by one. Someone has observed the situation nearby according to the footsteps, "I should have left by no means." The leader frowned slightly and listened to the voice from the walkie talkie. "Say!" "The traditional Chinese medicine said someone had a fever. After reading it, he was locked up..." fever "How to deal with it?" The leader narrowed his eyes and said, "kill!" "Don''t hurry to stop the leader if he doesn''t make a mistake on the intercom..." wait a minute. " The leader narrowed his eyes and answered "What''s next?" Asked the man on the side. The leader looked at him and took out his mobile phone, "report to Qin Shao." ¡­¡­ Mosen glanced at Shi Shaoqin, who was drinking tea in the villa yard, and walked over. "Qin Shao, never took people away and didn''t catch it." The corner of Shi Shaoqin''s pretty mouth slightly hooked, "Oh?" With a slight sigh, he picked his eyebrows and tail with some playfulness, "Jue Chi, is this going to play cat and mouse with me?" Morson didn''t speak. "Let him play..." Shi Shaoqin sighed softly, "don''t hit the south wall and don''t look back." With that, Shi Shaoqin put down his overlapping legs, got up slowly and walked outside the sunshade Mosen quickly opened his umbrella and hit Shi Shaoqin. "I was thinking..." Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes slightly, and a thin smile hung on his handsome face, "... Chen, why do you accept Jian Chang?" "Gu muhuai still has some means after all." Mosen replied. Shi Shaoqin looked back at Mosen and smiled, "if it was a former Chen, I believe it. But now he... I doubt his motivation." Mosen gave a cold shoulder and didn''t answer. "The evening party..." Shi Shaoqin laughed, just like the child is about to eat candy. "Go there." "Qin Shao?" Morson was a little surprised. Shi Shaoqin looked back at him again. "Do you really think he didn''t doubt me?" Morson frowned, "but..." "Go and give him a reassurance..." Shi Shaoqin said with a smile. "Otherwise, it''s not good for him to abandon himself." He said with a restrained smile, "Hey, I heard he didn''t intervene in Li Xiaoyue''s affairs. If he thought Jane Mo was really dead, it wouldn''t be fun..." Chapter 510 Los Angeles was shrouded in a drizzle, and the night seemed to come a little earlier than usual. At the beginning of the Lantern Festival, the Feitian hotel has been full of wine and preparation, and the clothes and temples are worn together. It was so smooth for Jian Heng to officially become a member of the Gu family that it became a fact before many people had time to respond. The ensuing problem, naturally, the media and the outside world are concerned about whether he will divide the property originally belonging to Gu Beichen. With the attention of the outside world and the fact that Jian Heng is the host of this reception... Those who feel that Gu Beichen is high and unattainable on weekdays have turned to his circle. "You''re really not afraid of big things..." Li Yunze copied his pocket with one hand and motioned with a glass of red wine in his hand. "Is he afraid?" Chen Xuan shook his head. "I think he''s not afraid of things." Everyone is a man with a clear eye. He doesn''t know Gu Beichen''s mind to make Jane truss expand to a certain extent. Li Yunze looked at Gu Moyuan, who was with Jane truss, sighed secretly and didn''t speak. The whole reception can be said to be very lively. At least, it dispels all doubts for accepting Jian Heng''s family Now the wind direction outside is all Jane truss. After reviewing his home, he took care of the division and analysis of his family''s property. As for Jian Mo''s "death" and whether she has blood relationship with Gu Beichen, there are fewer people mentioned. "Zixiao is coming..." Chen Xuan slightly picked his chin. Gu Beichen looked indifferently at the door and saw Chu Zixiao coming in with Chu tianqin and Gu CI. "I''ll say hello to Beichen..." Chu Zixiao said calmly and walked to Gu Beichen. It has nothing to do with whether Jian Heng is a family man or not! "I''ll go over there and say hello to some acquaintances..." Chen Xuan said when he saw Chu Zixiao coming. Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen and then turned around, "together." Chu Zixiao and the two crossed and nodded slightly. "Do you know about Xiao Yue?" Chu Zixiao asked. "Yes." Gu Beichen responded indifferently and turned to the rest area. Chu Zixiao followed him. "Aren''t you going to take care of it?" Gu Beichen looked back at him, "how to manage?" Chu Zixiao was stunned by the rhetorical question, "but..." "Let it be!" Gu Beichen said indifferently, "don''t meddle in what you shouldn''t do." Chu Zixiao wanted to say something else, but he suddenly reacted... He looked at Gu Beichen with a slight stare. After a while, he answered. "I see..." Chu Zixiao''s words just fell, Gu Beichen''s sight suddenly condensed into a sharp light. He felt it was wrong. After looking at it, he looked back along Gu Beichen''s line of sight... At the door, a man who was not allowed to enter was standing there, which was particularly eye-catching. "Who is he?" Chu Zixiao wondered, as if he had never seen this person in the circle. Gu Beichen has already got up. At the right time, Mosen''s eyes looked over Chu Zixiao only felt the breath around him coagulate instantly, and the oppressed heart seemed to miss a few beats. "You go to the elder sister first..." Gu Beichen said lightly. Chu Zixiao wanted to ask something, but he endured it, nodded without asking, got up and left. Just before he left, he looked at Morson who came over. "Long time no see!" Morson spoke indifferently. "It''s been a long time..." Gu Beichen replied coldly, "I''m surprised that you appear here." Morson didn''t change his face. "Indeed!" "Where''s Shi Shaoqin?" Gu Beichen asked without detour. "Qin Shao?" "I''m the only one..." "Oh?" Gu Beichen smiled, but the smile was stiff at the corners of his mouth, with a cold breath, "he couldn''t hold his breath..." Mo Sen frowned, as if he couldn''t understand Gu Beichen''s words. "Isn''t......" Gu Beichen sneered. "Isn''t he afraid I can''t remember him, so... Let you come?" "..." morsen sighed softly and said slowly, "the more you are, sometimes, the more reason why Qin Shao can''t let go." After a pause, he continued, "Chen, I can only wish you good luck." "Mosen..." seeing that Mosen was about to leave, Gu Beichen shouted. Morson stopped and looked at him suspiciously. "Is Mo''er in his hand?" Gu Beichen endured and asked, gritting his teeth. Mosen shook his head, hooked the corners of his mouth, said nothing, and turned away without stopping And he shook his head, whether he could not tell Gu Beichen, or whether Jian Mo was not in Shi Shaoqin''s hands... Gu Beichen could only guess for himself. ¡­¡­ "Oh... Vomit... Vomit..." There was an intermittently angry voice. "A woman''s pregnancy is trouble..." Carney rolled his eyes. "I''m still spitting in the motorboat this morning... Jane foam, will your reflex arc be too long?" Jane Mo glared at Carney in neutral, then bent down and continued to retch. When she was pregnant with a milk bag, she basically had no reaction, so that during that school period, everything went well. However, I don''t know if I feel uneasy in my stomach this time. The constant tossing is just going to toss her rhythm to death. After running so long in the morning and tossing until the evening... She didn''t respond all the time. Now the rest, the little guy began to "torture" her. "You''d better find a hospital to have a look?" Shi Juxi frowned. As soon as Carney heard this, he quickly stood up and said, "by no means, are you crazy?" Shi Jue Chi''s face was dignified. "Next, it may be a place that keeps moving. Foam can''t vomit more than that." After a pause, he said slightly embarrassed, "I just checked on the Internet. It''s hard for pregnant women to have vomiting like this." Carney''s mouth twitched uncontrollably, as if... Some couldn''t understand Shi juechi''s behavior. Shi juechi was more and more embarrassed when Kani saw him. He deliberately pretended that nothing had happened and said, "wait a minute, you may expose your whereabouts and go to the next place." ¡°OK£¡¡± Carney shrugged. "You has the final say." Jane Mo can also hear something from their conversation. She knows it''s not a wise choice to go to the hospital now... But she doesn''t trust her child. "Let''s go..." Shi Juxi motioned. Jane Mo looked at Kani, and then got on an insignificant minivan with Shi juechi. Carney drove. Since he didn''t want this stronghold, he simply went to the best local hospital for examination. In this world, there are few things that money can''t do. When a considerable check was put in front of the chief obstetrician and gynecologist, her fatigue, which had just been operated on, disappeared in an instant. Kani looked at Jian Mo, who didn''t know what to say to Shi juechi, and whispered to the doctor, "find a way to make the child disappear..." Chapter 511 As soon as the doctor heard it, some did not respond and looked at Carney. They give so much money just to get rid of the child? This is too confusing "I want to be invisible!" Carney gritted his teeth and repeated. The doctor immediately understood what Carney meant, that is, to turn the accidental abortion into a normal accident. "This..." the doctor was a little embarrassed. Carney sneered, "it won''t cause you trouble to take money to do things." The doctor nodded his head as soon as he heard it. Kani nodded with satisfaction and went to shijuechi without saying anything more Now it''s troublesome enough to bring a simple foam. If you add this child who will be in trouble at any time, you''ll be in trouble if you don''t drag it to death. Moreover, the child was affected by drugs and there was no need to keep it. They had no way to decide. He decided for them. When Shi juechi saw Kani coming, he smiled and said to Jian Mo, "go ahead and prepare. We''ll wait for you outside." Jane moped her lower lip, nodded and entered the examination room. After she went in, Shi juechi suddenly stopped smiling, "what did you just say to the doctor?" "Nothing?" Carney pretended to be silly. "He said to check the condition of pregnant women." "Really?" Shi Jue Chi Leng hum, "Carney, I haven''t known you for a day or two..." Carney was suddenly silent. Shi juechi glanced at him indifferently and greeted the coming doctor, "doctor, I don''t care what he just said to you, but I only need one result... That is, whether it''s a pregnant woman or a fetus in the stomach, I want them to be safe." As soon as the doctor listened, the corners of his mouth twitched uncontrollably, "that... This, when, of course!" "I assure you," said Shi Chi Chi, as warm as spring breeze, but when he was cold, he had a momentum. "If a pregnant woman or a child has a problem, I will make everything you have now become a bubble." The doctor''s heart was shocked and subconsciously looked at Carney. Carney nodded helplessly, which means... Listen to him, that''s right! When the doctor got the instruction, he quickly smiled and said, "don''t worry, as long as it is within the scope of ability, I will ensure the safety of mother and son." Shi juechi nodded, stepped aside, watched the doctor enter the examination room, and said coldly, "Carney, if you don''t want to help me, you can leave." Carney didn''t answer. He leaned silently against the wall with his arms around his chest and sighed softly. It used to be Gu Beichen, but now it''s Jianmo... I owe these two people in my last life, right? No, I owe Gu Beichen... Jian Mo is also linked with him anyway. Shi juechi sat down on the rest chair and said calmly but firmly, "this child..." he narrowed his eyes slightly. "No one has the right to decide for her except Jian Mo himself." If the child is lucky enough to escape the harm of silence, he must try his best to protect it. If not Shi Jue Chi lowered his eyes and sighed secretly. Don''t say it''s hard for you, Jane! As time passed, Carney kept looking at his watch and went around the hospital from time to time. Shi juechi didn''t move from beginning to end. He looked at the door of the examination room and said in his heart that it was false not to worry. How much ability Shaoqin has, how clear he is, and how worried he is at the moment. Suddenly The door of the examination room came and wanted to move. Almost at the same time, Shi Juxi stood up. He looked at the doctor and the Jane foam that followed him. His eyes were full of questions. "Everything is normal for the fetus for the time being," said the doctor. "Go to the hospital for examination in a month... As for whether the fetus is too large and inappropriate, you have to wait for 4D to know." Shi juechi listened to the doctor''s explanation of recent matters and nodded very seriously, "OK, I see. Thank you." The doctor smiled, shook his head and left. At the same time, there was a noise from the floor elevator, and Carney hurried out... He was obviously relieved to see Jane foam coming out. After seeing the doctor, Carney didn''t say anything. He strode to Shi juechi, "never less, go!" Without much words, Shi juechi took Jian Mo''s hand and went to the stairwell. Carney followed close behind, watching, and the distance between them would not be too far. "Where has the man gone?" Shi Juxi asked. "Close to the hospital." Carney said hastily, "I''ve gone to the hospital to get rid of the surveillance." As soon as Shi Juxi listened, he had pushed open the door of the underground parking lot, and the three got on the car in a hurry. Jane Mo is a little asthmatic. She has just had an examination. She is a little uncomfortable, but she can only endure it. The minibus went out of the hospital at night, and then two black business cars entered the hospital. "Absolutely few signals are moving..." someone in the car said to the walkie talkie. "Distance!" "Leave the hospital." "Chase!" After someone gave the order, the two commercial vehicles immediately turned around and followed the signal source Carney''s skills are excellent. He drives at a high speed and turns at a red light. In short, he doesn''t stop. Looking behind his eyes in the rearview mirror, Carney said, "never less, almost?" "For a while..." Shi Juxi said indifferently. Jane Mo tried her best to endure the tumbling emotion caused by the rapid speed, but because of forbearance, her face gradually became pale. "Can you bear it for a while?" Shi Juxi asked anxiously. Jane nodded her lips and tried to pull a smile. Shi juechi looked back. At night, he couldn''t decide whether there was a car following him. Take out the mobile device. Shi juechi waited for a while before turning it off. "Get rid of it." Shi Juchi opens his mouth. "Good!" Carney answered and suddenly began to shift and step on the accelerator. The roar of "woo" came, and the car rushed out like an arrow leaving the string. Almost at the same time, Shi juechi took Jian Mo into his arms "No, I don''t want to... Maybe you can be more comfortable." Shi juechi''s voice was a little frozen. Jian Mo''s body stiffened in an instant, and the original struggle stopped Shi juechi was just trying to make her more comfortable. She was so embarrassed that she looked pretentious. Kani''s speed is faster and faster. Jian Mo doesn''t feel much because she is hugged by Shi Juxi. The symptom of wanting to vomit is much lighter. Shi juechi''s lips were tight. He didn''t say anything, but his face began to be heavy. Carney looked in the rearview mirror, looked at him in the light of the occasional street lamp, and then nodded. Just deliberately left a signal so that they didn''t have time to stay in the hospital... Otherwise, the old Chinese medicine said that someone had a fever. However, it''s not easy to get rid of them. "Never less, no, we can only change places." Carney said solemnly. The plan was arranged in many places, but the plan was disrupted because of Jane Mo''s accidental pregnancy. Can you hold on and see if silenceds works? Now we can only think of another way. "Change!" Shi Juxi said the next word calmly. Chapter 512 When the roar of the helicopter came in the night sky, several people came down from the business car, looked up, and their faces were dignified. "I''m determined to go against Qin Shao this time?" Someone sighed and was in a complicated mood. Some people are dissatisfied, "is such a woman worth fighting against Qin Shao?" The leader looked back at the two people, and the two people kept silent one after another. "Report to Qin Shao..." the leader said and got on the bus. I''m afraid all the routes have calculated their abilities and Qin Shao''s understanding of him. I''m afraid it will take a lot of effort to catch up with you when you leave this time. Jane looked down, then looked at Carney, who was looking at the helicopter, and her heart jumped ''poop poop''. If it wasn''t so thrilling, she would praise Carney... For driving a car and driving a helicopter. Who can do it? Jian Mo is not a fool. The more she touches, the more she knows... Shi juechi is not an ordinary person. "Is there any discomfort?" Shi Juxi asked. Jane Mo was stunned and shook her head, "too nervous, forgot to respond..." Listening to her self mocking joke, Shi juechi was astringent in his heart, but his warm face was peaceful to a reassuring smile, "if there is no accident, I should be able to rest for a while at the next stop..." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and nodded. "Go to sleep first?" Shi Juxi said with a smile, "it''s estimated that it''s still a while to the destination..." "Yes." Jane answered. She was really tired. She didn''t sleep the night before, followed by a nervous "escape". At this moment, her nerves relaxed, and she immediately felt very tired all over her body. ¡­¡­ As a metropolis, the brilliance of the night highlights people''s erosive pursuit of the night. Mid levels villa. Gu Beichen stood in front of the window of the study. The ashtray on the windowsill was full of cigarette butts... Inside the house, the air was full of the smell of nicotine. "Dong Dong" knocked on the door. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and said, "come in." Aunt Luo opened the door and the smell of smoke almost choked her. Frowned, she sighed and said, "Chen Shao, it''s bad for your health to smoke so much." "Why haven''t you rested yet?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer the question. It''s already more than eleven o''clock after the reception. It''s time for the early morning. "Seeing the light in the study is still on, I think you haven''t slept..." aunt Luo put the tray on the table. "Come and make some snacks." Gu Beichen looked down slightly, and there was a moment of astringency in the bottom of his eyes. In the past, if he came back, he would be busy. Mo''er would also make some snacks after drawing the design drawings and eat together Finally, often, after supper, people forget the unfinished work, enter each other''s bodies, and continue to taste each other''s beauty. The more I miss you, the more lonely I am now. Aunt Luo looked at Gu Beichen''s absent-minded appearance, and her nose became sour. It''s all better. Why did you go back all at once? The old lady left and the young lady left... What can Chen Shao do in the future? "Aunt Luo, go and have a rest..." Gu Beichen opened his thin lips and opened his mouth lightly. "Alas!" Aunt Luo answered, dragged her weak and sad body and left the study. The night is full of darkness, and the drizzling night makes people unable to breathe. Gu Beichen lay on the cold big bed, closed his eyes, but he didn''t feel sleepy at all As long as he was free, he thought about Jian Mo crazily... The more he thought, the more he fell into endless panic and hesitation. With a brush, Gu Beichen suddenly shook Kai''s eyes. In the dark, the eagle''s eyes are as sharp as a falcon, with pure light in them. He sat up, lifted the quilt, put on his slippers, fished off his nightgown, put it on, and went out When I entered the study, the smell of smoke that had not yet dissipated was so strong that it was pungent. He turned on the light and simply didn''t close the door to let the smoke go. He strode to the desk and took out the QR code painted by Jian mo. he stared at it for a while before narrowing his eyes This should be a double-layer QR code diagram? Thinking like this, Gu Beichen found out the paper, took out the pen and began to draw the decomposition diagram according to Jian Mo''s QR code The light was shrouded in Gu Beichen''s voice, which was dark. With the passage of time... Gradually, a glimmer of light appeared in the East. In the study, all kinds of papers with two-dimensional code drawings have been scattered everywhere, while Gu Beichen is still buried in painting. He has broken down many kinds, but they are obviously wrong. The rain stopped slowly in the morning. Fog filled the sight, and the birds'' chirping sound was particularly beautiful. Gu Beichen slowly lay back on the seat, slightly wrung his eyebrows and looked at the QR code scattered on the table, "am I wrong?" He muttered to himself. With a sigh, after cleaning up all the pictures, Gu Beichen went back to his bedroom to take a bath and change his clothes. Mingming didn''t sleep all night, but at the moment, he was neatly dressed, but people couldn''t see a trace of fatigue. After eating a person''s breakfast, Gu Beichen drove to the emperor. "Chen Shao, Jane..." Susan paused and said, "Gu Heng has reported in the development department." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and pushed the door into the office. "Inform all regional CEOs, no matter what... There will be a video conference in an hour." "OK." Susan answered, put the day''s briefing on her desk and withdrew. Just sit down and your cell phone rings. Gu Beichen looked and saw that it was Chu Zixiao''s and picked it up, "how?" "Where is it?" Chu Zixiao asked, "I''ll come and sign the equity transfer." "Company!" "I''ll be there in a minute... About half an hour." Chu Zixiao said and hung up. Gu Beichen put down his mobile phone, his eyes narrowed slightly, and then recovered his indifference. Chu Zixiao grabbed the steering wheel with his strength, sighed, and then drove to the direction of emperor group. Because of the continuous rain for a day and the high ground temperature, the air is filled with fog under the heat flow "Didi" Suddenly... The anxious horn filled the repressed surroundings. When Chu Zixiao saw the logistics car crashing from the side, his reflective pupils widened and his men hit the steering wheel. A loud bang came, followed by a clang of bells. The voice of "Yiyi" becomes harsh in the blurred consciousness, and it seems that there is only such a voice in the whole world. Far away, there was the voice of the crowd, but Chu Zixiao couldn''t hear anything. In the illusory eyes, blurred things block the line of sight. Until the end, the eyelids could no longer bear the weight and closed slowly Chapter 513 In the hospital, the noise of footsteps and rollers filled the air. Everyone stopped and looked at the man covered with blood on the emergency bed The blood has covered Chu Zixiao''s face, and the breath of death surrounds him. "What''s going on?" A doctor asked the people nearby while disinfecting. "Intracranial hemorrhage, temporary shock in the heart, and resuscitation after first aid..." the people who participated in the first aid hurriedly said Chu Zixiao''s symptoms. After hearing this, the attending doctor frowned and tightened his eyebrows. "Dr. Hu, do you want to inform Li Shao?" The emergency doctor asked after saying that. After all, Chu Zixiao is Gu Beichen''s nephew, and his relationship with Li Shao is the same as his brother. "Let me know..." Dr. Hu went to the sensing door. "I''ll go to the operation first." Words fall, others have walked in. The emergency doctor watched from the visiting window that the nurse was dressing Dr. Hu in surgical clothes. Without much thought, he hurried out of the operating room to contact Li Yunze. With a "drop", the internal telephone rang. Gu Beichen pressed, and Susan''s voice came, "Chen Shao, the CEOs of all regions are online. The meeting can begin in ten minutes." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and frowned slightly while breaking his heart. Took the mobile phone and broadcast it to Chu Zixiao, but it was unable to connect. The phone hasn''t hung up yet. The outside line has flashed in. Gu Beichen cut over and saw that it was Li Yunze and picked it up. "Zixiao had a car accident and was in the hospital. I''m going to the hospital." Gu Beichen immediately narrowed and immediately got up, "I''ll go now..." He hung up the phone and left the office. "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing saw Gu Beichen coming out and hurried forward. "Inform the meeting to postpone..." Gu Beichen said as he walked to the elevator. Susan was slightly stunned. "About what time?" Xiao Jing pressed the elevator and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen was silent and immediately said, "to be determined in the afternoon." With a "Ding" sound, the elevator arrived at the same time as Gu Beichen''s words fell. Susan answered and saw Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing enter the elevator. At the moment when the elevator door closed, she couldn''t help frowning. "What happened?" She murmured and turned to inform the meeting to move to the afternoon. Gu Beichen didn''t inform Gu Ci and Chu tianqin. Now Chu Zixiao doesn''t know what''s going on. It''s no use worrying about too many people. "Where''s Yunze?" Gu Beichen asked when he arrived at the operation floor. "Li Shao has entered the operating room." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and then asked about Chu Zixiao The driver who caused the accident also went to the hospital. According to the investigation of the traffic police, it was the accident caused by the failure of the truck brake. "I''ll follow up..." Xiao Jing took the lead in opening his mouth. Gu Beichen nodded slightly and didn''t speak. Xiao Jing turned and left First, Li Xiaoyue was "guided" to kill, and then Chu Zixiao was "accidentally" in a car accident. It''s a coincidence or artificial. I''m afraid it''s not simple. There are not so many coincidences in this world... Most of the coincidences are man-made. Chu Zixiao''s injury is very serious, but Li Yunze is an operation expert in this field. The whole operation process is very smooth "How''s Zixiao?" Seeing Li Yunze coming out, Gu Beichen asked. Li Yunze''s face was dignified. "People are safe, but..." after a pause, he said, "whether you can wake up is another matter." "What do you mean?" Gu Beichen frowned at the moment. Li Yunze sighed, "Zixiao''s intracranial hemorrhage and nerve compression... Although it has been cleared in time, it may not wake up because of the serious damage, which is commonly known as being a vegetable." Gu Beichen''s eyebrows frowned and tightened. "Can such a situation wake up..." Li Yunze''s voice was heavy. "One is to see the miracle, the other is to see his perseverance to survive." ¡­¡­ Jane Mo woke up induced by the aroma of food. It was late at night when she arrived at her destination last night. She felt that it was more than three o''clock in the morning all the way. Tired and relaxed, she had a deep sleep for the first time in recent days. "Wake up?" Shi Juxi smiled and put down the dishes in his hand. "After washing, you can come and eat." Jian Mo looked at Shi juechi as a family man and was slightly distracted... For a moment, she even regarded him as Gu Beichen. She really misses ah Chen so much Jane Mo looks at herself in the mirror. Maybe it''s because she doesn''t have a good rest. Her eyes are a little puffy. I didn''t notice last night. Now I look out of the bathroom window This is a community! Jane Morse walked out with doubts. "Here, I''m not afraid of what news I hear? Or what?" "If you''re still wayward, I can only follow you now." Shi Juxi smiled faintly. Jane Mo skimmed her lips and refused to comment. Shi juechi just made it clear that after yesterday, she would not be casual... She was not afraid that she would want to escape. "Eat first..." Shi juechi put the nutritious porridge in front of Jian mo. "Thank you!" Jane Mo took it and looked at the food on the table. It was light but nutritious. She couldn''t help warming her heart. "If anyone marries you in the future, he will be very happy." Shi juechi smiled. "I''m lucky to be with another person. It''s the feeling between two people. It doesn''t matter whether I can cook or not." Jane Mo was stunned and smiled, "too!" At least... Gu Beichen can''t cook. She is happy with him. "Where''s Carney?" Asked Jane mo. "I disliked that my cooking was too light. I went out to find something to eat." Shi Juxi sighed softly. Jane Mo smiled. "It''s really difficult for him." She said this, but she knew in her heart that Carney was probably exploring the news outside "How long do you live here outside?" Asked Jane mo. From yesterday''s car with good performance, which is the same as her modern one, to the helicopter... Jane Mo feels that the "escape" route this time is probably not simple. "It depends." Shi Jue Chi raised his eyes and looked at Jian Mo, "the child is an accident, so he can only adapt to circumstances." Jane moped her lower lip and didn''t ask any more questions. "Mo Mo..." Shi juechi put down his chopsticks. "Huh?" Shi Jue Chi''s eyes gently looked at Jian Mo, with a warm smile in his mouth, "look outside..." Jane Mo subconsciously frowned and looked out, "what''s the matter?" "The sun is shining." Shi Juxi smiled and said, "that''s hope..." As soon as Jane Mo heard it, her nose became sour in an instant. She looked at Shi juechi, looked at his soft and calm face, and gradually smiled, "I know..." Children are sunshine, maybe... Hope! Chapter 514 After a gloomy day in Los Angeles, it began to rain again in the evening. Gu Beichen used his relationship to suppress the news about Chu Zixiao''s car accident Chu tianqin and Gu CI knew that it was already in the afternoon... Gu CI cried and almost didn''t faint. "Let''s do the rest separately," Gu Beichen said with a sharp eye and a cold voice. "This time... I want Gu mohuai to have no way back." After the regional CEOs answered one after another, Gu Beichen cut off the video communication and immediately got up and left the office. "Chen Shao, the dinner with Zhengfu has been arranged." Seeing Gu Beichen coming out, Xiao Jing came forward and said. Gu Beichen nodded slightly and walked to the elevator In the dark of the night, Gu Beichen looked at the people on the table who had been drinking a little full, and the corners of his mouth were slightly invisible. Things have been settled in the wine table culture. In Los Angeles, the emperor''s position is unshakable... The people in Zhengfu naturally pretend, and finally they basically have to stand on the side of the emperor. "Everyone, I have something else to do, so I''ll leave first..." Gu Beichen said faintly, "you also drink a lot today. It''s inconvenient. I opened a room in the hotel." "Chen Shao is too polite..." someone said with a smile and blurred eyes. "If you have something to do, go ahead and do it ourselves later." "OK." Gu Beichen nodded, got up and left the box without superfluous expression. The obscene laughter with pleasant artistic conception behind him was cut off behind the door. Gu Beichen''s eyes were completely disgusted under indifference. "Chen Shao, can I take you back?" Xiao Jing asked. "Let''s go back to the hospital and take a rest with you," Gu said "OK." Xiao Jing didn''t say anything. Gu Beichen took the umbrella in Xiao Jing''s hand and walked in the drizzle at night The place to eat is very close to Huakang hospital, just a street away. It only took more than ten minutes to walk, but Gu Beichen walked for a long time. He walked and stopped until he saw the sign light of Huakang hospital. No wonder Mo''er hates going to the hospital so much. Only those who have experienced the death under the hospital will resist so much Drooping his eyes, he sighed softly. Gu Beichen was about to walk into the hospital when suddenly, all his movements stagnated... Then he slowly turned and looked back. The back is empty, with branches and leaves inching with the wind. The rain falls on the ground and is reflected by street lamps and lights. But no one! At that moment, he felt right... Someone was looking at him! Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly and hissed coldly. He didn''t look for it, but turned around and calmly entered the hospital. The moment he entered, a figure came out slowly behind a tree with a thick trunk. Without an umbrella, the drizzle slightly wet his hair and shoulders, but he couldn''t see embarrassment at all. Shi Shaoqin smiled slightly at the corners of his mouth. With that smile, he appreciated it. "Under such a mood, our thoughts are still so sensitive... Chen, I really look forward to our first positive response after so many years." As he spoke, Shi Shaoqin gradually restrained his smile and turned to the roadside. In a moment, Morson drove over. After getting on the bus, Shi Shaoqin took off his suit and said indifferently, "I want to see Jian Mo in a week." Mosen didn''t speak, but looked back at Shi Shaoqin reflexively. "What does Qin Shao mean?" "Enough time for juechi..." Shi Shaoqin said ambiguously, and a cold breath overflowed from the corners of his mouth. ¡­¡­ Jian Mo''s life is like this day by day. In the twinkling of an eye, it has been five days in the house in this community During the day, she was afraid to go out. At night, Shi juechi would accompany her around the community, but she didn''t dare to spend too long. There is a TV in the room, but Jane Mo dare not watch it. Where is this? She doesn''t know. She doesn''t know if she can receive the news about Gu Beichen However, people are like this. They can deceive themselves, but they can''t suppress their emotions after seeing them. Fortunately, there are books in the house. She can pass the time. There was a sound of opening the door, and Jane Mo subconsciously looked up... She saw that Carney was back. "By no means, ready." "Do you want to change places?" Asked Jane mo. Shi Juxi nodded, with a faint solemnity on his face, but that emotion flashed by and didn''t stay for a long time. Jian Mo has reached a consensus with Shi juechi. Now she not only hopes to return to Gu Beichen, but also has a greater urgency to hold the baby in her stomach as much as possible and under conditions. Even if she has to give up at the last moment... However, at this stage, she doesn''t want to give up any hope. There was nothing to clean up, and Jian Mo knew that Shi Juxi would arrange things everywhere. Just took a book that she hadn''t finished reading in her hand. Jane Mo took a sun hat and put it on. After changing into light flat shoes, she hurried away with Shi juechi and Carney. Just ten minutes after they left the community, Shi Shaoqin''s people arrived. In the end, they still threw themselves into the air. "Can you calculate so accurately every time?" The leader snorted coldly and turned back to sweep the crowd. One after another, they were looked down, and the atmosphere didn''t dare to breathe. After a long time, someone hardened his head and said, "Rogo, Carney and sample are the best in the blood evil spirit. That''s why Qin Shao put them next to jueshao." For their means, both the sample in Mo palace and Kani around Shi juechi are very clear. The head man called Rogo''s face darkened and said coldly, "keep chasing!" He doesn''t believe it and can''t catch it Jane Mo sat in the car and had some nausea. Recently, Shi Jue Chi Wei asked her to have less pregnancy and vomiting. Whether it''s diet or others, she will try to avoid what can make her react. However, at such a speed, she felt a little uncomfortable. "It will arrive in about half an hour. Can you bear it again?" Shi juechi asked softly. Jane Mo swallowed and nodded. Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo''s face painfully and wanted to call Kani to stop and have a rest, but he also knew clearly... He couldn''t. Jane Mo closed her eyes and didn''t think it might be better. Shi Jue Chi Suo''s long arm probes into the past and holds Jian Mo in his arms... His mind is scattered. Maybe it can be better. Carney looked behind his eyes in the rearview mirror and didn''t speak. He just accelerated the speed. "Squeak" came the sound of braking. Carney looked at the destination that was only more than ten meters away. Suddenly, his eyes were cold, and his voice was even more nervous. "There''s a situation." After all, he just wanted to turn the car around, but the people and cars pouring up from all directions completely surrounded them Chapter 515 "Never less!" Kani looked back at Shi juechi and his face became slightly bad. Shi Jue Chi was still calm, but looked at the people gradually gathered around and asked indifferently, "can you rush over?" Carney looked at Jane foam. "Try it?" He wondered and worried. Now, I hope I can keep the baby in Jian Mo''s belly. If I break through... What will happen can''t be guaranteed. Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo, looking at the people gradually gathered around him. He secretly bit his teeth. Before Jian Mo could speak, he hugged her tightly again in his arms, "Chuang!" Carney frowned at the moment. Is this to protect Jane Mo with his own body? His lips moved. As soon as he wanted to say something, he was stopped by Shi Juxi''s sight. Carney secretly bit his teeth and could only prepare to break through. Jane Mo''s heart is beating like thunder. She wants to ask what''s going on, but she doesn''t want to affect Shi juechi and Carney. The sound of the "whine" engine showed an arrogant attitude. Carney focused his attention and was ready to find a breakthrough. "Sit still..." After the sound of Carney, Jane Mo felt that her body was quietly shackled. At the same time, the body rushed forward "Bang -" "Bang!" "Woo..." The roaring sound came with the sound of heavy objects colliding. Then Carney manipulated the left and right to appear "s" free, trying to make the air gun that wanted to shoot their tires helpless. Shi juechi subconsciously tightened Jian Mo''s arm. On the one hand, he was nervous, but he was more afraid of her being hurt. Jian Mo''s body has some unstable center of gravity due to the collision force and the free car back and forth. Even though Shi Juxi tried to make her present a motionless state, the disgusting emotion surged up in an instant. She clenched her teeth to prevent any strange news from coming out. She grabbed Shi Juxi in one hand and put her hand on her lower abdomen Baby, Mommy can''t help it now. Can you cooperate? When we get to a safe place, we''ll respond... Okay? Jane Mo said to herself like brainwashing. I don''t know if it''s because the baby with fetal heart has telepathy with her. The mood of wanting to vomit has been slightly relieved. ''squeak - '' Suddenly, a harsh brake sound came through the noisy flame. The sound of tires rubbing the ground is even more heavy under the treacherous. Carney''s breathing began to thicken up. A pair of pupils widened rapidly, and the corners of his mouth twitched for a long time. It was useless to say a word. Shi juechi still held Jianmo and didn''t move. He just looked ahead through the windshield Jian Mo felt the car stopped and instinctively struggled to see the situation. However, Shi Juxi put his big palm against the back of her head and buried her in his arms to keep her from moving. Jane Mo gradually calmed down and didn''t move. She just felt that the air gradually filled out in the narrow space in the car was oppressive and couldn''t breathe. "Juxi?" Jane Mo murmured softly. "Don''t move..." Shi juechi''s voice was as usual, calm and gentle. Jane Mo didn''t move. She was curious, but such a time and situation didn''t allow her to be curious. Carney looked at the car in front of him, and the figure standing there with indifferent hands. He looked back at the eye stone and asked at the bottom of his eyes. Shi juechi''s face darkened. He still missed such a situation. "Qin Shao?" Morson stepped forward when Shi Shaoqin slightly turned back and motioned for the next step. Shi Shaoqin looked at the car in front and opened his lips lightly. "Take the people away first." Morson looked at the car and answered, "yes!" "Don''t let her know it''s me for the time being..." Shi Shaoqin explained. Mosen nodded and saw that Shi Shaoqin had calmly got on the bus. Carney got out of the car when Mosen came forward. They were people who came out of the bloody ghost at the same time. They knew each other very well... There was no need to talk with each other with one look. Carney sighed and looked at the car in front of him. Qin Shao came in person, which shows that there has been a snare arranged here, and there is no chance to escape Don''t say it''s Jian Mo, even he and jueshao, I''m afraid we can''t finish this time. Turning around, Carney and Shi juechi looked at each other and nodded slightly. Shi juechi''s face was dignified. After closing his eyes, he gritted his teeth and said, "foam, failed..." "Juxi?" Jane Mo made a soft sound, touched the corners of her lips and didn''t speak. She doesn''t know what will happen next... People are full of fear of the unknown. After Shi juechi covered her eyes with his own hands, Jian Mo subconsciously wanted to pull something that blocked her sight. Shi Jue Chi quickly pressed Jian Mo''s hand, "I''m you. I won''t be curious at this time." "Juechi, I......" Jane Mo was a little flustered. "Mo Mo, believe me, don''t take it down..." Shi juechi''s voice was a little nervous. "At least... Don''t take it down yourself at any time." Since Shaoqin doesn''t want Mo Mo to see him for the time being, it shows that Mo Mo is safe in the short term. At least he has a chance If Mo Mo sees Shaoqin, I''m afraid this opportunity will be lost. Jian Mo''s originally restless mood relaxed slowly because she felt Shi juechi''s tension. She bit her lower lip and nodded after being silent for a few seconds. Such trust made Shi juechi''s heart suddenly tighten, staring at Jian Mo, who was obviously nervous and afraid, and the fundus of his eyes gradually condensed. Morson opened the door. "Let''s go!" Jane Mo didn''t move. She tried her best not to put her hands on her belly, but just clenched them together. "I''ll accompany you..." Shi juechi said softly. Hearing the familiar voice, Jane Mo tilted her head towards the direction, tightened her lips and nodded slightly. Morson didn''t speak, but looked at Shi juechi coldly, holding Jian Mo towards Shi Shaoqin''s car. "Qin Shao explained," Mosen looked at Carney. "After returning to the Mo palace, he went to the bloody ghost to receive punishment." After a pause, he smiled strangely at the corners of his mouth, "the sample has been waiting for you there..." Carney smiled and shrugged his shoulders. His face didn''t matter. It seemed that the place he was going to was not painful at all, but expected to be relaxed. Morson ignored Carney and just left indifferently. Watching the luxury car leave, Carney''s mood was relieved a lot In fact, the final result will be like this. As long as Qin Shao thinks, he can''t play at all. Morson drove the car and looked in the rearview mirror Shi juechi sat between Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo, blocking them. No one spoke. The narrow carriage was dignified. Shi Shaoqin was the only one who was so indifferent. There was even a shallow smile on Junyi''s face. "Juechi..." Jian Mo felt a little uncomfortable. Coupled with the fear of darkness, the feeling of churning came. She tried to bear it, afraid of being seen that she was pregnant. Shi juechi seemed to see through Jian Mo''s mind at a glance, ignoring Shi Shaoqin''s chilly eyes, and gently took Jian Mo into his arms Chapter 516 Shi Shaoqin frowned his sword eyebrow in an instant. Just for a moment, he recovered his usual faint smile. In a pair of long and narrow eyes, when you look back, there is an emotion that people can''t understand Morson looked in the rearview mirror and was surprised. Do you really like Jane Mo? Isn''t it to make Qin Shao give up dealing with Jian Mo? But the mood just now doesn''t actually The most important thing is Jian Mo''s attitude. Under the panic and fear, she relies on Jue Shao How many days? Jian Mo''s feelings for Gu Beichen have moved to jueshao? Thinking like this, Mosen subconsciously looked at Shi Shaoqin from the rearview mirror... If jueshao really fell in love with Jian Mo, I''m afraid the next variables will become more complicated and confusing. It''s possible that Qin Shao will let go of Jian mo. It''s possible... Gu Beichen will have a harder time in order to avoid it. With a deep sigh, Mosen restrained his mind and continued driving... Qin Shao''s mind has never been guessed by anyone. The roar of the engine, with its arrogance, crossed with a whine. After Jane Mo got off the bus, her first feeling was that they had arrived at a place like the airport. "Be careful..." Shi juechi held Jianmo gently, trying to make her fear less, "step a little bigger... Yes, a little ahead... Good..." Jian Mo crossed with Shi Juxi''s guidance. When she was placed on the, she was sure that they were on the plane. There was a noise when the roller rubbed the ground, and the plane climbed up, and the whole environment was quiet. Jane morhu lifted her lower lip and subconsciously grasped Shi juechi''s hand, showing a trace of dependence. Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo painfully, his other hand covered her hand, stroked it gently, and tried to comfort her, "don''t be afraid, I''ll always be by your side..." Jian Mo looked at Shi juechi subconsciously, although she couldn''t see anything. "Mo Mo," Shi Jue Chi lowered his eyes, and his eyes fell on Jian Mo''s ring, "do you remember what I said to you?" Jane Mo frowned slightly, thought and nodded. When she just woke up, Shi Juxi''s words with a long focus were probably for the arrival of this day? "That''s good..." Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo, "if you''re bored, think about it, huh?" Jane moxin still carried it and said that she was relieved. I''m afraid only Gu Beichen had given her such an impact of security in the world. Nodding, Jane Mo didn''t speak. Shi juechi didn''t let go of Jian Mo''s hand from beginning to end, as if only in this way... Can she be at ease. However, such companionship can not be achieved After flying for about an hour or so, Shi juechi suddenly felt a chill behind him. When he started his body and wanted to have a look A dull hum of "Oh" came. He looked at Morson with an apologetic look on his face. Before he could respond, he had fainted. Jane Mo felt that the movement around her was wrong, and subconsciously wanted to take off her blindfold "If I were you, I wouldn''t be curious about what happened now..." the faint voice came gently, and Shi Shaoqin slowly turned his head to Jian Mo, "otherwise, you''re not just hurting yourself, it''s likely to be Shi juechi!" Everyone has weaknesses, and Jane Mo has the same. She looks very cold at times. It''s really not easy to enter her world... But such a person also cares more about the people around her. The original action to pull stopped, but Jane Mo gritted her teeth and said, "but how do I know... Even if I don''t move, you won''t hurt him?" "HMM..." Shi Shaoqin smiled at Jian Mo with his pretty lips. "Why don''t you try?" The soft voice was full of joke, but Jane Mo couldn''t take it as a joke at all. Because, such light words, with inexplicable meaning, spread from the soles of her feet... But in an instant, it frozen her heart. How can someone speak in such a nice voice, but give people cold? Thinking, Jane Mo''s eyebrows have been knotted together I just didn''t notice... This man''s voice is a little familiar. It seems that I''ve heard it somewhere? Jane Mo couldn''t help leaning her head slightly. There shouldn''t be many people around her with such a nice voice. Who would it be? "Do we know each other?" Jane Mo asked suddenly. Shi Shaoqin''s smile spread slightly, "what do you think?" Jane Mo frowned. "Even if we don''t know each other, we must have met, right?" "Maybe..." Shi Shaoqin looked back. "If... This can give you a sense of peace of mind or give you greater fear, I''d like to see it." Jane Mo listened and her breathing became rapid. Why... Does she think this person is abnormal? Yes, that kind of psychology gives her a very extreme feeling. "Can you tell me..." Jane Mo held her breath and slowed down her tension slightly. "What''s the matter with you?" "Don''t worry, I won''t hurt him yet." Shi Shaoqin drooped his eyes. His slender and perfect hand was as clear as jade. However, there was a long scar mark in the palm, which was particularly dazzling. "The only thing I wouldn''t hurt in this world is him!" Jane Mo opened her mouth and tried to refute. Shi juechi didn''t respond at the moment. He must have been stunned by them just now? This is called no harm? But then think about it... I''m afraid for this person, the harm is not just like this. Jane doesn''t know how long it took the plane to land. For her in the dark, the time is extremely long She was guided off the plane, then got on the bus, and finally when she didn''t have to change places, she could only hear the sound of rolling water. By the sea? Jane Mo was puzzled, so she heard a bang and the door closed. "The destination has arrived?" Jane Mo asked sideways. No one answered. "Can I take off my eye patch?" Jane asked again, but no one answered. Jane Mo frowned, "no one spoke, I took it off..." Hold your breath for a moment, but there is still no answer. The air was filled with a treacherous smell. That feeling made people stand up all over. "Hey, no one?" Jane Mo swallowed it secretly, and there was an instinctive fear in her nervous mood. After waiting for a long time, Jane Mo became more and more scared of such emptiness... Subconsciously, she took off her blindfold without considering anything else. The dazzling light made Jane Mo feel her eyes tingle. She quickly closed her eyes and opened them slowly after she adapted to it The glazed light pulled her out of the long shadow and looked around. Her sight fell on the sealed window. Jian Mo''s breath became heavy. She ran to the door and wanted to open it But the door was locked from the outside and she couldn''t open it. Jane Mo''s hand clenched the door handle tightly. She gritted her teeth and stared at the closed door and shouted, "what do you want to do when you catch me?" Chapter 517 The empty world makes Jian Mo fall into great panic. There is no one but her in the closed world. Looking around, this is a bedroom with independent bathroom. Jane Mo doesn''t know exactly where this position is... Just calm down and can hear the sound of the rolling waves outside. Jane Mo sat on the bed with some weakness and looked around with her eyebrows twisted. Her heart was particularly heavy. How did things get more and more complicated? At first she was drugged, and then Zixiao forced ah Chen to give up her... Then Shi juechi appeared, and now she was brought here by inexplicable people. Jane Mo drooped her shoulders and felt weak all over. She can''t have any enemies. Even if she has... I''m afraid no one can try his best to treat her like this. I''m afraid I don''t have the ability Jian Mo''s mind echoed with Shi Juxi''s original words, and gradually his lips. What he meant... Should it have something to do with ah Chen? What if the other party uses her to deal with ah Chen? After all... From being drugged, it seems that it''s just to make ah Chen feel better. Thinking like this, Jane Mo''s heart trembled involuntarily. I don''t know why... She subconsciously felt that this matter had something to do with ah Chen''s kidnapping. "No, no... definitely not." Jane Mo closed her eyes and shook her head. She kept resisting. From the star point cognition brought by that thing, we can know that it has done great harm to ah Chen... If we add her again, she would rather die. When she opened her eyes, Jane Mo''s beautiful face was full of fatigue and worry. "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo''s voice was heavy. "If it''s really what I want, please... Forget!" ¡­¡­ In the garden of Huakang hospital, Gu Beichen and Li Yunze are sitting in the pavilion. There are several kinds of fast food and several cans of beer on the stone table. In the evening, the afterglow of the sunset dyed the west red. After several days of intermittent rain, it cleared up yesterday, but the dark clouds hanging over Gu''s head did not disperse at all. "When are you going to find Shi Shaoqin?" Li Yunze didn''t want to ask, but it was an unavoidable problem. Gu Beichen narrowed his eyes slightly, and the ink pupil returned to his usual indifference in an instant after emitting a sharp light. "Within five days." Gu Beichen opened his thin lips and opened his mouth lightly. "Can it be solved in such a short time?" Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen unexpectedly, "or... Do you have another plan?" Gu Beichen glanced at Li Yunze, picked up the beer can and drank, "I can''t wait." Li Yunze sighed and didn''t answer. "If I stay here for a day, I''m afraid Mo''er will hurt more..." Gu Beichen closed his tired eyes, "Yunze, I can''t sleep well even if I take sleeping pills these days." He was stretched by a thread. He was afraid of the result, but he had to know the result. "That''s the same sentence..." Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen and said, "no matter what decision you make, brother... Is by your side." Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze with dull eyes, but... In the dark, it was still choppy. All his life, he has misfortune. However, I am also lucky! There are brothers, Mo''er and Xiao Jie... He is worth it and has no regrets. "Xiao Jie can''t... shall I take it home?" Li Yunze said, "although Spencer has your defense, it''s not as safe as being a child of the Li family." Gu Beichen shook his head, "I thought..." Seeing his hesitation, Li Yunze answered, "because Xiaojie is so much like you!" This is a problem. As long as it is exposed to the public, then... It is estimated that at least more than half of the ten people can think that they are Beichen''s children. "Forget it..." Li Yunze felt that Xiaojie might be the best in such an environment. Although it can''t be said that it has been concealed, at least it''s less likely. "I''ll see him..." Gu Beichen suddenly got up. Li Yunze didn''t stop it. If the problem of Jian Heng and Gu mohuai is solved within five days, then... Beichen will leave without seeing Jian Jie for a long time. With a slight sigh, Li Yunze picked up the beer cans and poured them all into his stomach at one breath. His bloated breath could not be relieved. When Jian Jie saw Gu Beichen coming, his black pupil was completely surprised. "Daddy!" Jane Jay flew over. Gu Beichen attached himself and picked up Jian Jie. Jian Jie put his little arm around Gu Beichen and looked at his slightly frowned sword eyebrow. His little finger gently stroked the center of his eyebrow and said, "Mommy will be more motivated when she meets anything. She said that if she writes her failure on her face, how can she succeed?" Jane Jie smiled. "Daddy is smarter and more powerful than Mommy. You can''t lose to Mommy here! Otherwise, Mommy will find a chance to laugh at you!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips slightly raised a shallow smile. Now he actually needs his son to comfort and encourage him? "Daddy just felt guilty..." Gu Beichen sat down with Jian Jie in his arms. "I didn''t grow up with you or watch the sunrise and sunset with Mommy... I had to ask her to pay for my disaster." Jian Jie deflated his mouth. "Daddy can return it all his life..." he said, his voice was a little muffled. "Of course, the premise is that mommy should be by your side." "With your trust, I won''t let you down..." Gu Beichen kissed Jian Jie on the face, with a spoiled promise in the bottom of his eyes. Jane Jie kissed back, "Daddy, I believe you!" Firm words and firm eyes are not only trust, but also expectation. Gu Beichen nodded with a smile, "must..." Jian Jie stretched out his little finger, Gu Beichen looked at him, smiled and pulled a hook with him. "Is daddy coming to see me now?" "Yes!" "Daddy, are you going to find Mommy?" "Yes!" "I''ll protect myself..." Jian Jie said while eating the food Gu Beichen gave him. "Now when adults come to pick up the children, I''ll avoid them from seeing them. Moreover, I won''t take pictures with the children so that they can see me." No one taught him these, but he knew them all. Gu Beichen looks at Jian Jie painfully. He is Gu Beichen''s son... Why should he live so "humble"? If he wants to give him a wanton life and want to spend his life with Mo''er... He must face the darkness of the past, doesn''t he? ¡­¡­ When Shi juechi woke up, he found himself in the ink palace. With a slight frown, he got up and went outside. "Never less," said the servant respectfully. "Qin Shao told me that you can''t leave the Mo palace in the near future." "Where are the Shaoqin people?" Shi Juxi asked. "Qin Shao didn''t come back. He just sent someone to send you back." Shi Juxi''s eyebrows frowned and tightened, "just me?" "And Carney!" The servant answered. Shi juechi closed his eyes and clenched his teeth... Turned into the house, took out his mobile phone and called Shi Shaoqin. As soon as the phone was connected, Shi Juxi asked in a condensed voice, "Shaoqin, didn''t you bring Mo Mo back to Mo palace?" Chapter 518 "Why, do you want me to take her back to Mo palace?" Shi Shaoqin asked softly. Shi Jue Chi was stunned Yes, if you take Jane Mo back to the Mo palace, that''s the beginning of the pain. His breath was a little short, and Shi Juxi came down, "Shaoqin?" "Juechi," Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "I told you early in the morning... Don''t meddle in this matter, otherwise... It will only become more and more complicated." Shi Juxi gritted his teeth, "but I don''t intervene, it''s impossible." He closed his eyes and endured it for a while before slowly saying, "Shaoqin, I love Jian mo... I can ignore the things between you and Gu Beichen!" Shi Juxi gritted his teeth, "but can''t you let Jane Mo go for my sake?" Shi Shaoqin was silent. He stood in front of the window with his pocket in one hand and looked deeply at the sea shrouded in the dark night "Shaoqin," Shi juechi tried to control his anger, "I can guarantee that during your confrontation with Gu Beichen, Jian Mo will not appear in Gu Beichen''s world... Only, but also not?" Listening to the rapid breathing sound on the phone, Shi Shaoqin finally hung up without saying anything. Shi juechi listened to the "Dudu Dudu" hanging up sound, stunned, and called again But this time, no one answered. Shi juechi didn''t fight again. He knew... Shi Shaoqin had to think about it. He doesn''t know how many accidents there are in life. He just knows... A white "lie" has become true now! ¡­¡­ Jane Mo is going crazy staying in the closed room. Someone will bring food in at a fixed time every day. She doesn''t know everything else Day or night? I don''t know Besides the sea, where is it? She still doesn''t know She wanted to ask the food delivery people, but finally found that they were deaf and dumb! The other party seems to want to trap her to death, even... The purpose is to drive her crazy. Jane Mo was anxious and couldn''t eat at all, but she forced herself to eat for the sake of her children "Well..." But after a few mouthfuls, Jane Mo felt nausea for a while. She covered her mouth and hurried to the bathroom. She began to vomit crazily. The two people guarding outside were indifferent, or they couldn''t hear what was happening inside. In this seaside villa, except for the people outside, the people in the villa are deaf and dumb. The gatekeeper just needs to make sure that Jane Mo won''t rush out. It is precisely because they are deaf and dumb that Jane Mo is glad... That she can react recklessly. After spitting for a while, Jane Mo looked at herself in the mirror with a pale face and panting. Embarrassed, she looked haggard. Even when her father died and her mother left her, she didn''t become so decadent. She doesn''t know how long she''s been in this dark environment, but she just thinks she''s going crazy... The spreading fear can''t be contained at all. At first, she tried to judge from the delivery time. But later, she found that it was useless. Because I don''t know how many waves of people sent her meals, and often someone would send them soon... When I saw the meals on her desk, I was obviously surprised. Obviously, the people behind didn''t know that the people in front came to deliver the meal. Who is the other party? She has carefully eliminated all the details she can peep into. Jane Mo opened the cold water and washed her face. She went out powerlessly. Looking at the food, she had no appetite. She gently touched her stomach and closed her eyes Baby, are you upset, too? Mommy is bad and not strong enough... However, please believe Mommy. In the end, Mommy will try her best to protect you. certain! Jane Mo opened her eyes, and the black pupil twinkled with the light belonging to only one mother. For the sake of the children, for ah Chen... She wants to overcome such blankness and fear. Only in this way can we talk about what to do in the future! With a dull hum of "um", Gu Beichen''s sword eyebrow frowned in an instant, his big palm covered his temple and opened his eyes Looking at the familiar environment, he turned on the bedside lamp. He was still alone in such a big bed. Just in the dream, he looked at Jian Mo''s firm eyes from a distance... Reached out to him and told him that she would wait for him until she couldn''t wait any longer. He wanted to go, but he was beaten from behind Waking up is just a dream. Gu beichenjun''s face is hard to hide his fatigue. After days of lack of sleep and missing, he can''t endure even if he is an iron man. After taking a sleeping pill at the head of the bed, Gu Beichen closed his eyes again. He must rest. If he goes on like this, he has collapsed before he finds Mo''er The dawn tears the black silence and ushers in a new day with the heat of midsummer. When Xiao Jing came to pick up Gu Beichen, his indifferent handsome face couldn''t see any fatigue at all. Some were just looking at the world coldly as usual. "Chen Shao, it''s all arranged." Xiao Jing said, "the second master''s retreat has been cut off. Even if there are omissions, I''m afraid it''s not easy to turn over." Gu Beichen looked indifferent. From his face, he couldn''t see any emotion, "where''s Jane truss?" Xiao Jing looked behind his eyes from the rearview mirror. When he took back his sight, he said, "it''s also in the network state." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly and looked out of the window without much emotion. The passing street scene is as usual, but things have changed. Gu muhuai listened to the phone and his face gradually became ferocious. Finally, he gritted his teeth and said, "has everything been dug out?" "Yes, Mr. Gu!" The person on the other side of the phone was breathless and nervous. "All the funds in Europe and America have been frozen, and even have spread all... It is preliminarily estimated that all our funds will be frozen in one day." Gu mohuai''s mouth began to tremble slightly. He knew that Gu Beichen would find a way to break his back. However, he did not expect that he would be so resolute Gu mohuai hung up the phone, his eyes leaked fierce light, and said with gnashing teeth, "Gu Beichen, you forced me!" He narrowed his eyes slightly and slowly overflowed with a fierce light like a beast. After taking the computer, Gu mohuai quickly drifted his fingers on the keyboard. After a while, he entered the mailbox and called out an email that had been edited for a long time. He snorted coldly, "if you want to break my way back, then let''s see who will mess around in this joint!" Gu muhuai opened the email and saw that the title on it said... Gu Beichen was violated by a man during his disappearance! "Beichen, even if you don''t see it... I''m afraid this is the root of your great change of temperament?" Gu mohuai sneered, "I want to see how much time you have to fight with me after tearing the scar of your resistance!" Chapter 519 Gu Beichen''s news that he had been violated by men was marked "hot" in only ten minutes on the Internet. The number of comments and click through rate were amazing. Such news is so popular that when it is noticed, there is no way to stop it. There have been too many news about Gu''s family recently. A hot thing happens almost every few days. However, no matter which one, it didn''t come as a surprise. Even... The first moment everyone saw such news, they felt that the publisher was dead and dared to frame Gu Beichen like this. However, when more and more people comment and write analysis posts, all people understand one thing. That is, it is possible that Gu Beichen really suffered a major blow before his temperament changed greatly. After all... Once such a sunny boy, the favored son of heaven, has become bloodthirsty and cold here. If there is no mutation, how can his character be reversed? "My God, what I see must not be true..." Sun Ke shook his head and turned out of the tea room with words in his mouth. Daxiong frowned and looked at the newspaper in Qiao Zirong''s hand, "isn''t this too groundless?" "The emperor''s public relations department has issued a statement," Mu Xiaoran shook his mobile phone. "The emperor''s lawyer group has also filed a case to sue the rumor maker." "But some people say it''s to cover up the facts..." Xiang Leng hum. She can be regarded as the most admirer of Gu Beichen in Xiangyu design department, but after Jane Mo''s affair, she is now completely... Love deep and naturally black. Los Angeles, even the surrounding cities... Followed by the whole country. The Internet is a magical thing. Even if you annihilate the source, there will only be more people talking about it in private. Gu Beichen was once invaded by men, just like mushrooming, spreading uncontrollably. When Luo Xiaomi saw the report, his tears'' Shua ''fell down. After she put down the news she had been shooting all night to the group leader, she didn''t say anything and turned and ran outside. "Luo Xiaomi, you..." The typesetter saw Luo Xiaomi and just wanted to study the layout allocation with her, so he ran away. Puzzled, he frowned and looked at everyone blankly. "You were in the typesetting room all night and didn''t know there was a big news in Los Angeles..." someone moved his notebook to typesetting. When typesetting saw the news headline, his eyes widened, "lying in the slot, can''t it be true?" Everyone knows why Luo Xiaoben didn''t leave, but it''s true. The little uncle was questioned like this. It''s strange that Luo Xiaomi, as an admirer, is not crazy. Luo Xiaomi rode her little sheep and drove to the emperor like crazy. When people arrived nearby, they saw a group of reporters surrounded outside. The security guards had become a human wall to intercept. Luo Xiaomi stopped the sheep by the side of the road and ran quickly. As she came from the magazine, she still had a work card around her neck. As soon as the security guard saw it, he stopped her immediately. "I''m Luo Xiaomi. Am I blind?" Luo Xiaomi was angry. "I stopped it?" "Sorry, all reporters are not allowed in." The security guard looked serious. "I''m Luo Xiaomi. I''m Gu Beichen''s niece!" Luo Xiaomi roared angrily. Unfortunately, the security guard was unmoved. "Some people say they are the illegitimate daughter of the president!" "..." Luo Xiaomi''s eyes were red. She chopped her feet and began to argue with the security guard. However, no matter what she said, the security guard just wouldn''t let her in. "If you''re really the niece of the president, you call..." the security guard couldn''t stand rolling his eyes. "If the President let you go, you''ll enter." Luo Xiaomi was stunned. She was so worried that she forgot to call. The security guard looked at her stunned appearance, with a mockery on her face, and couldn''t help whispering: "today''s reporters are really crazy. In order to interview, they can make up any lies..." Luo Xiaomi ignored him, but took out his mobile phone and called Gu Beichen. After a few rings, Gu Beichen picked it up. After Luo Xiaomi heard the "um" inside, the uncontrollable "brush" of tears fell down again "Little uncle... Sobbing..." Luo Xiaomi sobbed uncontrollably. "I''m downstairs... Sobbing... But I can''t get in..." I don''t know whether he was anxious or too sad. Luo Xiaomi choked and his body trembled. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "I''ll let Xiao Jing go down to pick you up." "Hmm..." Luo Xiaomi choked, glared at the security guard and went to one side to wait. After a while, Xiao Jing came down. When the mass media saw Xiao Jing, they crowded up "Xiao tezhu, is Chen Shao''s news true?" "Xiao tezhu, is the news on the Internet true? Could you please explain..." "Xiao tezhu..." Xiao Jing ignored the crowd, but went to Luo Xiaomi and saw that tears still remained on the crazy little girl''s face, which made her feel sad. "You have a reporter''s work permit. Can you come in?" Xiao Jing said angrily, took Luo Xiaomi''s hand, and took her into the emperor in the noisy voice of the people. Along the way, Xiao Jing nagged... If usual, Luo Xiaomi would have started talking back, but not today. "Xiao Jing, is it true about my little uncle?" Luo Xiaomi asked pitifully with red eyes. Xiao Jing pressed down the elevator and looked at Luo Xiaomi. "I don''t know." "Why don''t you know?" Luo Xiaomi was dissatisfied, "you know what underwear your little uncle wears..." "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth and turned his eyes angrily. "Little girl, let Chen Shao hear that you''re so open, I have to scold you." Luo Xiaomi wanted to refute, but he still stopped talking. "Xiao Jing, it''s not true, is it?" Luo Xiaomi hangs her head, and the energetic little girl''s wine glass is wilting. Xiao Jing glanced at her. "Yes or no, say hello yourself... I have no right to answer." Luo Xiaomi looked at Xiao Jing and nodded. ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin listened to Mosen''s report and frowned slightly, "who released the news?" "No investigation, but the only thing that can be sure is..." Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin and said, "at least he knew that Gu Beichen was missing in the Mo palace." In fact, few people knew the original thing. In addition to Gu mohuai, who sent Gu Beichen over, most of the rest were people close to Gu Beichen. It is absolutely impossible to disclose such a thing. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, and there was a little dissatisfaction on his handsome face. "Gu muhuai is really anxious to jump off the wall... I dare to take advantage of it?" Chapter 520 Mo Sen lowered his eyes and kept silent. He didn''t dare to speak. At that time, Gu mohuai was able to "use" Qin Shao because Qin Shao took a fancy to Gu Beichen. It''s just that he lacks an opportunity to stay with Gu Beichen Now in this game, Qin Shao has long said that he will not intervene in the affairs between Gu mohuai and Gu Beichen, but Gu mohuai has forgotten one thing. No matter how you play, Qin Shao''s bottom line cannot be touched. "If he wants to die so much, let him die happily..." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were deep, and his handsome face overflowed with cold light. Morson looked up and asked, "what does Qin Shao mean?" Shi Shaoqin snorted coldly, "isn''t Chen trying to keep him from turning over?" His good-looking corners of his mouth gradually overflow a radian that makes people feel cold, "then help Chen." After hearing this, Morson immediately understood, "yes!" Just about to turn around, Mosen seemed to think of something, stopped and asked, "Qin Shao, Jane Mo, she..." Shi Shaoqin looked at Morson and didn''t speak, waiting for him to continue. "She''s a little unstable and hasn''t eaten much." Morson is a little worried. Shi Shaoqin snorted coldly, "don''t worry, you can''t die..." Morson seemed motionless. "As long as she still has hope for Chen, then... She won''t want to die." Shi Shaoqin said coldly, with a slight smile across the corners of his mouth. The corners of Morson''s mouth moved back and forth. What else did he want to say? In the end, he didn''t say anything. He doesn''t know whether jueshao is passionate about Jian Mo, but he has a feeling... Jian Mo will become the root of some turbulence between jueshao and qinshao. With a dark sigh, Mosen turned and left without saying anything Qin Shao must be able to think of what he can think of. It is estimated that it is because of the thought that he has not decided how to treat Jane mo... That he locked her in the closed space. ¡­¡­ The privacy of Gu Beichen in Los Angeles has been exploding. Idle people watch the excitement. Almost everyone in the mall can foresee how volatile the emperor''s stock will be. With a Ding, the elevator reached the top floor. Luo Xiaomi also sniffed. At the moment when the elevator door opened, he took the lead to go out and trotted to Gu Beichen''s office In a hurry, Luo Xiaomi forgot to knock on the door. Gu Beichen looked back at the little girl and frowned slightly, "is there no basic politeness?" When Luo Xiaomi saw Gu Beichen, he just cleaned up his mood and burst into tears. She didn''t speak. She ran over and hugged Gu Beichen, "little uncle..." Just after he shouted, Luo Xiaomi''s tears fell down like a broken kite. I can''t imagine if it hurts her, uncle. Although the rotten girl is in charge these days, she is just cute and not in such a forced state What should I do? My uncle has been criticized by many people. She doesn''t want it! Gu Beichen''s heart warmed, and the little girl''s excitement made his heart a little warm. "Little uncle, what should I do? Sobbing..." Luo Xiaomi hugged Gu Beichen and sobbed. She didn''t know what she was going to ask, but she couldn''t stop being sad. Gu Beichen sighed, "you are so sad that I almost think I have been fooled..." "I''m just sorry for you..." Luo Xiaomi said, suddenly stopped, let go of Gu Beichen and blinked with tears. "Little uncle, what did you just say?" Gu Beichen looked at her indifferently, "go and wash it. What does it look like?" Where is Luo Xiaomi in the mood to take care of his image now? She hurried forward and grabbed Gu Beichen, who wanted to turn around. Her body flexibly blocked the way in front, "little uncle, what did you just say?" After she asked again, she asked eagerly, "you mean, the report is false, there is no such thing?" Gu Beichen''s face is a little bad. It''s strange to discuss with his niece whether he has been fooled by a man. Seeing Gu Beichen''s bad face, Luo Xiaomi didn''t care whether his little uncle would be black or not. With the expectation of surprise in his eyes, he asked, "little uncle, just tell me whether the report is true or false..." she waved her hand, "don''t say anything else." Gu Beichen sighed and shook his head. Luo Xiaomi immediately shouted "ah" and jumped up in place. "I knew..." Luo Xiaomi finally fell back with his heart, smiled and shouted, and hugged Gu Beichen again. "Little uncle, luckily it''s not true..." she said, her nose was sour again, "how sad it would be if my little aunt knew. Fortunately, it''s not true..." With that, Luo Xiaomi suddenly grinned. She really doesn''t open which pot to carry... Is her brain funny or water in it? "Little uncle..." Luo Xiaomi released Gu Beichen in some embarrassment. Gu Beichen''s eyes dimmed and didn''t say anything. "Clean up and do what you should do. I have a meeting to hold later." "Oh..." Luo Xiaomi answered angrily, drooped his shoulders, secretly glanced at Beichen and left the office. When the talent went out, he jumped around again in situ. No matter what the kidnapping was, as long as it wasn''t such an insulting event. Of course she won''t look down on her little uncle, but what about others? Thinking of this, Luo Xiaomi wiped away the tears on his face, raised his chin slightly, grinned and said, "attack my little uncle, hum, let''s talk under the pen." After all, Luo Xiaomi has been resurrected full of blood. With full fighting spirit, he left the emperor and rode a little sheep back to the magazine, intending to attack those who spread rumors with reports. Susan and Xiao Jing look at each other "Me again?" Xiao Jing was dissatisfied. Susan rolled her eyes. "I''m a woman. It''s inconvenient!" "I''m still a man, even more inconvenient..." Xiao Jing turned his eyes. "It''s not for you to go to men. What''s inconvenient for you?" Susan joked. As soon as Xiao Jing heard it, he was choked by his saliva. "Susan, don''t you think things are not messy enough?" Xiao Jing gritted his teeth and subconsciously looked at the direction of Beichen''s office. Susan sighed and said nothing. Xiao Jing glanced sideways at her and turned to the office. Knocking on the door, Xiao Jing pushed open the door of the office without waiting for a sound from inside. Gu Beichen just came out of the lounge and was buttoning his shirt. Just now, Luo Xiaomi cried all tears and couldn''t wear it. "Chen Shao..." "Decide you go?" Gu Beichen said softly. Xiao Jing pulled the corners of his mouth, "HMM." Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep, and he immediately recovered his indifference. "Well, Susan didn''t feel at ease in the past." Don''t Gu mohuai really want to know what happened in those years? Then give him a chance Chapter 521 The setting sun fell directly into the office through the glass, pulling Gu Beichen''s tall figure long. With the sound of "bell", the sound of steel lighter crossed, and Gu Beichen calmly lit the smoke. Gently inhaled, curling smoke spit out Under the sun, the smoke slowly covered his handsome face... Faintly, I could see Gu Beichen''s thin lips and a cold smile gradually overflowing. He will now stand in such a state because he instinctively resisted all the things in the original Mo palace. From the beginning, he was not distracted by Shi Shaoqin. Maybe... Everything today will not happen. At least, Mo''er won''t be hurt. Shi Shaoqin grasped his instinct, or subconsciously resisted him and Mo palace... And took advantage of the second uncle''s return. Everything was just confusing his sight. In that case... It''s better to return the other body with the other way. Gu Beichen lowered his eyes, his eyes fell on the ashtray on the side table, and his slender fingers turned slightly... Twisted out the cigarette butts in the ashtray. In such a big office, gradually, under the smoke, it was filled with cold. ¡­¡­ Xiao Jing got out of the car and held the door in his hand. At the same time, he looked up slightly and looked at the hotel. A cold smile came out of his mouth. After closing the door, Xiao Jing stepped into the hotel, pressed the elevator and went to the floor where Gu mohuai lived. When he arrived at the door of the room, he saw that the door was open. Xiao Jing frowned slightly and went in... He saw that the room staff were cleaning. "Hello, can I help you?" Xiao Jing looked around and asked, "where are the people living here?" "Someone just checked him out," said the housekeeper. "Mr. Gu left with those people." "Who?" The guest room recognized Xiao Jing and said without concealment, "some men are strange... They don''t seem to laugh and their faces are stretched." He paused slightly, as if meditating, "Oh, by the way... Mr. Gu seems to be in a bad situation. His face is a little strange, but he didn''t resist." Xiao Jing listened, narrowed his eyes slightly, nodded, turned and left. After leaving the hotel and getting on the bus, Xiao Jing called Gu Beichen and asked suspiciously, "Chen Shao, is it Shi Shaoqin?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflow a word of indifference. Xiao Jing was stunned. "So fast?" "He has always had someone here, or..." Gu Beichen snorted coldly, "maybe someone else is here." Xiao Jing frowned, "but I didn''t find it." "A person who has won the first place in Interpol but can''t find evidence to catch him..." Gu Beichen snorted coldly, "do you think he will be simple?" A person who plays with human nature and is not influenced by emotion... Such a person often has no shortcomings. It is precisely because of this that the ink palace is so large. Whether it is poison or drugs, it still stands. Xiao Jing''s heart is heavy. Chen Shao reverses and uses himself to force Shi Shaoqin. "You can come back..." Gu Beichen said indifferently. "It seems that you can solve Jian truss in advance." "OK." Xiao Jing answered and hung up. He hung his hand weakly and closed his eyes. The tip of my heart began to hurt. It felt like someone was stabbing him one by one Shi Shaoqin''s "possessive desire" for Chen Shao is abnormal and has nothing to do with love... It''s an obsession to see everything that doesn''t belong to him and want to stay with him. Therefore, Chen Shao can take advantage of this Shi Shaoqin can do anything to Chen Shao, torture him and see him crazy. But it happens that no one is allowed to violate the bottom line. And Gu muhuai violated his bottom line... All the rest doesn''t need Chen Shao''s automatic hand. ¡­¡­ "Qin Shao, Gu mohuai brought it..." Mosen said softly. Shi Shaoqin didn''t open his eyes, but said lazily, "Chen can''t wait to see me, so help him." There was a trace of emotion in the bottom of Morson''s eyes, but it disappeared in a flash. "I understand." Then he turned and left. Shi Shaoqin slowly opened his eyes. There was pure light in his narrow eyes, and the good-looking corners of his lips smiled, "are you finally coming to face me?" The smile gradually spread, "Chen, this wait... I''ve been waiting too long!" The cold voice was cold. Shi Shaoqin got up slowly and walked out with one hand in his pocket. Gu muhuai pretended to be calm and sat there. It was not his first contact with Shi Shaoqin. However, every time a man about the same age as Gu Beichen gave him great pressure. The sound of opening the door came, and Gu murhuai looked subconsciously In the backlight, he could not see the man standing at the door clearly, but with the arrival of the man, the air seemed to be frozen... Shi Shaoqin was the only one who gave him a sense of freedom in this world. "Qin Shao..." Gu Mo Huai got up and pulled hard at the corners of his mouth. Shi Shaoqin smiled and sat down calmly opposite. Gu mohuai also sat down with his heart in his hand, but his ass just touched an edge on the chair and wanted to get up at the fastest speed at any time. "Who told you..." Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth faintly and his voice was slow, "... What happened to Chen by a man?" Gu mohuai twitched at the corners of his mouth and didn''t speak. It is said in the Jianghu that Shi Shaoqin is a gay. Didn''t he pay so much attention to Gu Beichen because "What belongs to me, I hate being slandered by others..." Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes and sighed lightly, "Gu mohuai, I said I can ignore the gratitude and resentment between you and Chen, but if it comes to me..." He didn''t speak, just slightly raised his eyes and looked at Gu Mo Huai sharply. Gu muhuai would have slipped from his chair and fell to the ground if he hadn''t supported it, "I, that... Not... I..." Shi Shaoqin sneered and looked at Gu mohuai faintly. "You''ve never been as smart as Chen..." his eyes gradually deepened. "He has a deep foundation in Los Angeles. Why can you spread such news so quickly?" Gu muhuai seemed to suddenly clear his eyes and suddenly widened his eyes. "Because he let you violate my bottom line..." Shi Shaoqin smiled. That smile harmlessly made people forget his original attributes. "I''m sure I''ll let you out now, you''ve become nothing!" "According to reliable sources, all foreign industries originally under Gu muhuai''s name have financial problems and are being investigated... The emperor urgently held a meeting to respond and minimize the losses..." In the TV, the voice of the financial news anchor came. Gu Beichen stood in front of the window with his hands in his pockets, and his thin lips drew a sneer at once. When the knock came, Xiao Jing came in. "Jian Heng''s things have been handed over to the police..." Chapter 522 The sky in Los Angeles is changing rapidly. There was a sudden problem with Gu muhuai''s assets over there. No matter what moment, the emperor''s high-level did not deal with it until they made an emergency. There was a problem with Jian Chang, who had just been recognized as Gu''s family. The commercial investigation section was charged with Gu Heng''s commercial fraud and misappropriation of JK funds in a short time, trying to transfer the emperor''s assets Without Gu mohuai''s backing, even if Jian Chang has a backhand, how can he defeat Mo Shaochen''s joint imperial lawyer group? However, in one day''s time, the changing situation overwhelmed everyone. However, smart people still see... This is just Gu Beichen''s game from beginning to end. How can a man who controls the fate of the emperor easily give what he gets to others? Whether Gu mohuai or Jian Heng... This battle, however, has become a chess in Gu Beichen''s hand. A flag that Gu Beichen completely "unifies" the emperor. Gu Beichen stood in front of the tombstones of Grandpa Gu and grandma Gu, allowing the wind and cloud outside to drift away, leaving only a clean area. "I''m going to find Mo''er," Gu Beichen said lightly. "I''ve fulfilled one of Grandpa''s wishes... I believe I can do the rest." Gu Beichen''s eyes fell on Grandpa Gu''s photo. "It''s not the feeling of Shen Chu at the beginning. Grandpa, I love Jian mo... Once I resisted everything that Shi Shaoqin had. Now, I can face everything for her." "When I leave, there''s nothing to worry about in Los Angeles..." Gu Beichen sighed, "except Xiaojie." Although there is the secret help of Yunze and the secret protection of Xiao Jing and Xiao Nan... As a father, don''t worry, it''s impossible. When footsteps came, Gu Beichen looked slightly and saw that it was Gu Moyuan. "Beichen..." "If you''re here to talk to me about Jian Chang," Gu Beichen said indifferently, taking out a bag with hair from his pocket, "you''d better check it again." Then he handed the bag to Gu Moyuan, glanced at the tombstones of Grandpa and grandma Gu, and left over Gu Moyuan. "Beichen..." Gu Beichen stopped, but didn''t look back. "Here is Jian Chang''s hair." After a pause, "Dad, you and mom should live the life you want... Whether it''s the mall or Los Angeles, it''s obviously not suitable for you." A slight stretch of lines stretched on his cold face. "Everything in Los Angeles, as if it had never happened... And," he turned back slightly and glanced at Gu Moyuan, "don''t mention Xiaojie to anyone. This is my last request to you." The words fell, Gu Beichen took back his sight and left with a calm but indifferent step. The wind is blowing slowly. Gu Moyuan watched Gu Beichen leave, and finally there was no shadow Slightly frowning, recalling Gu Beichen''s words just now, Gu Moyuan''s eyebrows frowned. "What does Beichen mean?" Gu Moyuan murmured, looking down at the things in his hand, "is there a problem with the samples compared before? And... Xiaojie will be in danger?" No one answered his question. In this life, because of weakness, he missed too much... Compensation. Obviously, this son doesn''t need it anymore. After Gu Beichen left the villa, he drove to the cemetery. Put the daisy in your hand in front of Jane Zhanfeng and Sumer''s tombstone He stood for a long time, looked at Jian Zhanfeng and said: "give Jian Heng ten years to reflect in prison... This is the biggest concession I can make." "Thank you for telling me the truth..." Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep and said secretly: I promised you about Jian Heng''s real identity. As long as they don''t find it by themselves, bury it with everything! Gu Beichen gradually restrained his eyes. "Dad, mom... I''ll take Mo''er back and see you again." The faint words were scattered by the wind. Gu Beichen turned around and left the cemetery The "legend" of Gu mohuai and Gu Heng is still widely reported in the radio news. For a time, people thought they would become the key figures for Gu Beichen to lose the power of the emperor, but in the end... They lost so quickly. Old news is often covered by new news. Coupled with the intentional guidance of most media, Gu Beichen''s personal "privacy" news began to fade out of people''s sight Even when a few people talk about it, it seems that they don''t have enough to hang their teeth. Devil ''skiss, as usual, depraved in madness. Gu Beichen sat alone in the box, with a bottle of red wine and two glasses in front of him, which was particularly treacherous. Since Gu mohuai and Jian Heng were settled, he has been here for a week He''s waiting, waiting for someone to appear! Occasionally, some of the noise outside came in, but it didn''t affect his mood from beginning to end. Attached to the body, picked up the wine cup and drank slowly... The mellow fragrance into the mouth can''t catch people''s bath expectation. The mobile phone was buzzing on the table. Gu Beichen calmly put down his glass and picked up the mobile phone. After looking at it, he picked it up "I''ve prepared wine. Don''t you want to come and have a drink with me?" Gu Beichen didn''t wait for the other party to speak and spoke calmly. Shi Shaoqin smiled at the corner of his mouth, "so sure it''s me?" "Is it......" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is deep, "... You secretly handed over all the evidence of Gu mohuai to Interpol, not to expect this day to come earlier?" He sneered, "Shaoqin, I haven''t seen you for many years. It seems that you can''t hold your breath." Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but just hung up Gu Beichen was not surprised. Even after a few minutes, the door of the box was opened When the man who had not seen for many years and had taken off his once slightly childish spirit stood at the door, Gu Beichen just casually raised his eyebrows at the corners of his mouth. Shi Shaoqin came in, and Mosen closed the door and guarded the outside. Just like an old friend, Shi Shaoqin didn''t have any politeness. He sat down, took the glass, shook it slightly, and looked at the glass hanging. "It''s not mellow enough. I collected a lot there and wait for you to taste it." Put down the cup, Shi Shaoqin slowly lay back on the sofa. The flirtatious Feng Mou slightly picked a wanton arc and looked at Gu Beichen, "I''m surprised that you''re so calm." Gu Beichen glanced at the corners of his mouth and smiled coldly... That smile was stiff in the corners of his mouth and showed alienation. "Where''s Jane Mo?" Gu Beichen asked faintly, "if you want to talk about conditions, you can!" He looked at Shi Shaoqin with a slightly cold eyes, "let her go, everything can be talked about." "What if I don''t let go?" Shi Shaoqin smiled, "don''t talk about it?" "Who knows?" Gu Beichen laughed. This time, the smile spread quickly, "I''m not sure... I''m crazy. Where''s the fish dead and the net broken?" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, but he soon recovered his calm, "why don''t... Let''s try?" He smiled brightly, "see who can last..." Chapter 523 Shi Shaoqin''s words fell, and the smile on the corners of his mouth instantly spread Under the soft and dim light, his charming face burst into such a smile, showing a treacherous look. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly and opened again. Mo Tong was indifferent to Shi Shaoqin without any emotion. I thought I could never face But now it seems that he is not as fragile and resistant as he thought. "Good!" Gu Beichen also hooked the corner of his lips. His cold, carved face was so indifferent. A pair of ink pupils were as deep as the sea. On the surface, they were as calm as usual, but in fact, they were already turbulent. Shi Shaoqin accepted the smile and looked at Gu Beichen with a slightly gathered Lin. "What are you worried about?" Gu Beichen''s smile spread a little, "it''s a big deal... I''ll accompany her." If not clear, Shi Shaoqin understood Gu Beichen''s meaning. "Don''t worry, how can I be willing to let Jane die?" Shi Shaoqin put down his overlapping legs and got up. "Want to see her?" He lightly Yi 1, the line of sight tiny droops of the eyebrow looking at Gu Beichen, "yes!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly without any surprise He deliberately released the news that Dengshi Shaoqin came to him, but it was impossible for him to see Mo''er so soon. In fact, his goal has been achieved today He just wants to know if Mo''er is still alive. Obviously, Shi Shaoqin doesn''t want to hide him... In that case, what he doesn''t understand is why he did so much to make himself think that Mo''er is dead? Shi Shaoqin looked at Gu Beichen''s indifference and composure, and his eyes were obviously excited. Compared with that year, Chen became too steady. But because of this, the game will be more fun "The bar is the starting point, you catch up with me and say..." Shi Shaoqin smiled calmly, turned and walked out with slow steps. "Qin Shao!" Shi Shaoqin glanced back slightly and said, "car key." Mosen looked inside and said nothing. He took out the key and handed it to Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin left calmly, and Gu Beichen got up and came out at the right time The noisy music was deafening, but Gu Beichen could hear morsen''s words clearly. "Only by retaining strength can we fight better." Gu Beichen glanced at Morson and narrowed his eagle eyes, "I won''t thank you." Mosen smiled faintly, "I''m not helping you..." after a slight meal, he said indifferently, "never say less. This is his advice to you." Gu Beichen immediately frowned, and there was a touch of complex emotion across his eyes. Without saying anything, Gu Beichen left devil''skiss with a steady step. Outside, Shi Shaoqin''s car has made a noise Gu Beichen looked at the humble car and calmly got on his Maybach. Sitting in the car, looking through the windshield, Gu Beichen picked up his mobile phone and dialed back according to the number just now. "Shaoqin, you''re wasting time with me, aren''t you?" After Gu Beichen said a faint word, he hung up the phone without waiting for Shi Shaoqin to speak. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were full of playfulness. After putting down his mobile phone, he shifted gears and stepped on the accelerator. The car had galloped out like an arrow. The two cars in front and behind roared in the night of Los Angeles, and no one paid attention to the vehicles avoiding one after another on the road and the sound of anxious sirens everywhere. The speed of the two people is faster and faster. They shuttle through the traffic flow. Many times, they are dangerous to avoid driving other vehicles. The "fight" between the two people officially kicked off from the car ¡­¡­ Jane Mo paced back and forth in the room. At first, she could sleep tired for a while, but with the passage of time, she couldn''t control the anxiety in her body Jian Mo began to beat the door and kick the door from time to time, trying to let the other party open it. But it''s no use! People outside can''t hear it at all. It''s no use letting her slap. "Let me out..." Jane Mo shouted weakly, and her voice was hoarse. In this way, there is no waiting in the sky. Even trained people can''t be quiet for a long time, not to mention a pregnant Jane mo. The original uneasiness broke out again after trying to restrain it for a period of time. Such an outbreak almost drowned her. "Open the door, open the door..." Jane Mo kept patting the door, but there was no movement outside. Jane Mo leaned against the door and sat on the ground slowly. Listening to the sound of the rolling waves outside, she closed her eyes powerlessly Suddenly There was a little noise outside, but it broke the silence except the sound of the waves. Jane Mo quickly turned over and stood up, stuck it on the door and listened. The sound was getting closer and closer. Gradually, it came to the door. Hope rose in her heart, and Jane Mo held her breath and waited "Bang!" "Dong Dong!" "Pop..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± All kinds of voices came, and Jian Mo''s breath gradually became heavy She didn''t know who it was, but inexplicably, her first reaction was Shi juechi. "Mo Mo..." the sound of knocking on the door came from outside, with a hurried cry. Jane Mo''s eyes lit up, "it''s me, it''s me!" "Let''s go to the side..." Shi juechi roared. Jane Mo almost instinctively gave way to the door, "OK." With a loud bang, the door was kicked open from the outside The light came in from the outside. Although there was soft light in the house, it was different at that moment. "Juechi..." when Jian Mo saw Shi juechi, his nose suddenly sour and tears fell down. Shi juechi saw the embarrassed Jian Mo and felt distressed in his eyes. He came forward and took her into his arms, "it''s okay, it''s okay... I''ll take you away." "Yes!" Shi juechi let go of Jian Mo, took her hand and went out It was not until this moment that Jian Mo saw the injury on Shi juechi''s wrist. Before she could ask anything, her eyes fell on the other hand, where... There was a dazzling red, which condensed into drops of blood along the hand and fell to the ground. "Juechi, are you hurt?" Jane Mo stopped. "Little wound, go!" Shi Jue Chi was in a hurry. "We''ll deal with it when we''re outside." Jian Mo''s eyes were full of heartache and guilt. Looking at the people lying down in the corridor, she knew that this was not a time for hypocrisy... She hurried to jump out with Shi Juxi. Under the night, there are stars, and the crescent moon emits a soft light. Such a light, Jane Mo can realize how precious it is now. It''s just that she doesn''t have time to appreciate it. The sound of fighting pulled her back. She saw two groups of people fighting in front of her. Shi juechi ignored the scuffle, just pulled Jian Mo and ran to the yacht parked in front "They..." Jane Mo got on the yacht and looked back at the people who were still fighting. As Shi juechi pulled him to the cabin and started the yacht to leave, he said, "if we go, we''ll stop!" "Oh..." Jane nodded gasping. The yacht is gradually away from the sea. At night, the ink space is connected with the sea. Just as Jian Mo slowed down slightly, a voice came from behind her and Shi juechi Chapter 524 "Never less, where are you taking Jane Mo?" Almost at the same time, Shi juechi and Jian mo were nervous and turned their heads one after another At the place where he entered the hatch, a man leaned lazily on the door with his arms around his chest. Because of the light problem, they can''t see who the man is from their angle. It''s just that the treacherous air is frightening. "Why are you here?" Shi Jue Chi rouhe''s face was cold. The man smiled, "Qin Shao said, as long as you are given a chance, you will come and take Jian mo..." he said calmly, "since you can know that Qin Shao put Jian Mo here, you naturally responded." "And you are the accident that I should not deal with!" Shi Juxi sneered. "Yes..." the man got up and walked in slowly. Until this time, Jane saw the person He looks very good and doesn''t lose Gu Beichen''s coldness. However, a scar slants on his face and forcibly cuts off Junmei with horror. Jane Mo swallowed secretly, breathing a little fast, but she tried to keep calm. "Awei," said Shi juechi, who had already stood in front of Jian Mo, "you alone may not be my opponent." Awei smiled. "Do you know why Qin Shao sent me in the dark?" Shi Juxi frowned and didn''t answer. "Because..." awei laughed a little bigger. Just because of this, the scar on his face felt more terrible. "... I''m afraid that only I can be cruel to you in the whole ink palace." Others have scruples, he doesn''t! Shi juechi didn''t speak, and even, without any indication, people had a spin kick and attacked awei. Jane Mo retreated to the corner. Now she can''t let Shi Jue Chi distract unless she protects herself. This is the sea. They are on a small yacht... Here, she can''t escape. Is that Qin Shao the one who took her? Where is mo palace? Jian Mo looked at the two people fighting suspiciously and was more and more sure... Gu Beichen''s kidnapping must have something to do with this place or the person called "qinshao". ¡­¡­ The sound of the "whine" car engine is full of arrogance, and the cars in front and behind are like glue. Suddenly he stepped on the rearview mirror and looked at it slightly. "Squeak -" The harsh sound of tires rubbing the ground came, and almost at the same time, a burst of "woo" came from one side of the body. It was the wind left by the passing of the car at a high speed. The voice of "Yiyi" came with cremation. Gu Beichen had just slammed the brakes on Shi Shaoqin and narrowly avoided the collision with his car, but there was no way to avoid the isolation belt in front of him. The car body wiped the isolation belt and drove forward for more than ten meters before it could stop. "Yi" came, and then Gu Beichen clearly felt that one side of the car obviously collapsed. A flat tire! Gu Beichen sent his seat belt out of the car and stood there looking at Shi Shaoqin''s car. His cold face was full of haze. Shi Shaoqin smiled, looked at Gu Beichen''s car and stopped. He had converged his eyes, made a direction and drove to another intersection again After a while, a text message was stuffed into the mobile phone. Gu Beichen took back his sight from the far away car, took out his mobile phone and opened the screen "Just got the news, Jane Mo ran away..." Looking at the text message sent by Shi Shaoqin, Gu Beichen frowned slightly. There was no response, and another one came in. "It''s really brave to drive a yacht... Well, it''s a bit of your original ability!" Gu Beichen''s heart rises with the text message. Shi Shaoqin can tell him that there must be follow-up Sure enough... The text message came in again. "Unfortunately, I estimated that you can''t let Jane Mo do it again..." Gu Beichen gradually tightened his hand holding the mobile phone. He didn''t move, just waiting for the next message. "You said... How about I throw her into the sea to feed sharks when I get to the middle of the sea?" Gu Beichen suddenly closed his eyes. He knew that Shi Shaoqin was provoking his anger and made him lose his calmness. When Gu Beichen opened his eyes again, another text message came in. "By the way, I forgot to tell you... Ah Wei is following Jane Mo!" Gu Beichen''s pupils expanded in an instant. He didn''t even think about it, so he dialed Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin didn''t answer. When Gu Beichen dialed again, he had prompted to shut down. Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and calmly closed his eyes to calm himself down There is a keyword in Shi Shaoqin''s words, that is "sea"! The only place close to Los Angeles and not too far from Mo palace is Haibin city. Gu Beichen hurriedly called Xiao Jing, "pick me up at Gaolan road... Arrange a plane. I''m going to the seaside." Xiao Jing didn''t know why, but he also knew that there must be the news of Jian Mo, so he quickly answered. ¡­¡­ The fight on the yacht is in full swing. Both awei and Shi juechi have been injured to varying degrees. Jane Mo doesn''t know if it''s because she''s too nervous. She feels a little falling pain in her lower abdomen. She put her hand gently on her lower abdomen, bent slightly, and a layer of fine sweat had overflowed on her forehead. When a loud bang came, Shi juechi''s body hit the cabin in an arc "Juxi..." Regardless of the pain, Jane Mo shouted and wanted to come forward, but she was stopped by awei. She wanted to avoid, but she didn''t move. Awei had caught her "Awei!" Shi juechi wiped the blood from the corner of his mouth and couldn''t care about the pain from his almost falling body, "let her go!" Awei mentioned Jian Mo like a chicken, sneered, and dragged her out Shi juechi came forward to stop him, but awei kicked him hard on the chest. "Oh", in the scream of Jian Mo, Shi juechi only felt the blood gas surging up, his mouth was hot, and the blood slowly overflowed from the corners of his mouth. "Ah -" cried Jian Mo, "let go of me... Juechi... Let go of me..." Awei dragged Jian Mo out of the cabin unmoved. Shi Juxi covered his chest and dragged his heavy body out step by step "Awei, what do you want to do?" Shi juechi looked at awei''s move with a frightened face, "no!" Jane Mo has been butted against the railing of the ship by awei. Under the night, the sea without wind and waves is only shaking slightly. However, no one can calm down when the fear shrouded by the vast darkness strikes. Jane Mo''s uncontrollable eyes have overflowed with panic, which is a resistance to death. "Awei..." Shi juechi roared, "Shaoqin won''t allow you to do this!" Anyway, Shaoqin can''t kill Jian Mo now Awei laughed and laughed wildly. "Back then... Gu Beichen left this scar on my face, which has become a disgrace for me all my life. He cares about Jane Mo, doesn''t he?" After a rhetorical question, awei suddenly forced his hand and pushed Jian Mo out "Ah --" "No -" Chapter 525 Shi juechi didn''t know where the power came from. He took an arrow step and grabbed Jian Mo when she turned her body outside the yacht and her subordinates grabbed her consciously. Jane Mo''s face was still in shock. The fear of death came out of human body instinct. She once wanted to die, so ah Chen wouldn''t be embarrassed. But first she didn''t want to die Not to mention whether the food Shi juechi gave her had any effect. In addition, she had a child in her stomach, a child she talked to Gu Beichen and loved by two people. She doesn''t want to die Jane Mo Xu is the kind of bath hope that her body instinctively doesn''t want to die. She grabs Shi Juxi''s hand and tries to stop her falling body. At her feet is the vast sea, or night. Even if she can swim, she can''t swim to the shore at all. Besides, no one can predict what will happen in the sea. The most important thing is, will the pressure of sea water make children flow away She doesn''t want to die, no! "Juechi, help me..." Jian Mo''s voice was trembling with fear and wanted to go up, but her body was always falling. Hand, a little bit from Shi juechi''s hand down. Jane Mo''s fear at the bottom of her eyes became more and more obvious... She shook her head, and the urgency at the bottom of her eyes was particularly bright under the starlight. Awei was watching. On his handsome face, the scar was particularly dazzling and ferocious, just like a ghost in hell. He was not in a hurry, so he watched Shi juechi pull there and appreciated the desire for survival on Jian Mo''s face Such an expression, as if it could stimulate his cool point, made him particularly excited. "Never less, you can''t pull it up..." awei laughed coldly. Shi juechi has been injured, especially when he went to take Jian Mo away, his arm was hurt... Besides, he didn''t leave his hand just now. Jane Mo''s falling force is by no means small. If she is not injured, she may be pulled up. Now Awei''s mouth overflowed with shallow laughter, which was full of the breath of death. "Juechi..." Jian Mo felt his weakness, his hand fell more and more, his body''s center of gravity began to fall, and his face was full of despair. Shi juechi''s eyes flashed, and his body was gradually pulled out of the fence by Jian mo. Jian Mo looked at Shi juechi and shook his head "Don''t..." Tears fell down like this. On the sea, some cold feeling. "Juechi, let go..." Jian Mo''s words have been powerless to despair, "you will fall down together." "If you let go, he won''t fall!" Awei said with a smile. He looked at Jane Mo and raised his eyebrows. "But you don''t have to worry too much. I won''t let him fall with you." Shi Juxi clenched his teeth tightly. After his eyes were cruel, he wanted to jump down with Jian mo. He doesn''t believe that Shaoqin can be cruel to Jian Mo, and so can he! Unfortunately, awei had already seen his intention. Just when half of Shi juechi''s body slipped out of the fence, he dragged him back Also because of concern and the pain in his arm, his hand holding Jian Mo loosened slightly. Jian Mo felt his hand slip rapidly in Shi juechi''s hand "Ah" screamed and slipped out. Before Shi Juxi could react, he heard a "poop" from the sea. "Foam -" Shi juechi''s panic came. He wanted to go down to save Jian Mo, but he moved... And was held by awei. "Let go of me..." Shi juechi struggled, "awei, I order you to let go of me!" "In this world, no one can command me except Qin Shao." Awei pulled Shi juechi indifferently, "jueshao, why don''t... You call Qin Shao and ask him to order me to let you go?" Shi juechi knew that awei was procrastinating. In the sea, anything unexpected would happen "Awei, let go!" Shi Juxi clenched his teeth, and the cold voice never appeared on him. Awei smiled with a cold smile. "Why? You don''t want to continue to fight me?" He sneered at the corners of his mouth and lowered his eyes. "In fact, even if I release you now, what can I do? Jane mo... I''m afraid it''s almost done." Mo palace is by the sea, but I know what will happen in the sea. It was a hopeless despair. But even so, Shi juechi can''t just give up Awei sneered, "never less, offended." As soon as Shi juechi''s pupils dilated, he saw awei raise his hand knife and slap him in the back of his head! Shi juechi glanced at awei with anger and despair in his eyes... When his eyelids closed, he fainted. "Well" a light muffled sound came, and Gu Beichen suddenly opened his eyes. There were few people in the first-class cabin. There were soft lights in front, and the sound of tapping the keyboard could be heard. But after a short rest, I dreamed of Mo''er again. Xu is the reason why his destination is a seaside city. He just dreamed that foam fell into the sea, fluttering in despair, shouting his name and waiting for him to save him. Gu Beichen closed his eyes, and the feeling of panic was particularly bad. Shi Shaoqin is abnormal. He has experienced this himself. In order to deal with him, he really has no way to guarantee whether he will do anything to Mo''er Gu Beichen rubbed his temples and looked out of the window I vaguely saw the starlight coming from the ground, but after a while, I heard the voice of the cabin service personnel... Prompt to turn off the mobile device, fasten your seat belt and land at Haibin International Airport in half an hour. Gu Beichen came and didn''t tell the Dragon owl. Some things must be solved and faced by ourselves. Moreover, he also knows that the Dragon owl must have his own business after staying in Los Angeles for so long. Out of the airport, the heat wave came slowly with the smell of salty sea breeze. "Chen Shao, the car is ready." Someone is already waiting at the exit. Gu Beichen took the car key and said nothing. He went to the parking lot, drove the car and drove away quickly. He had no time to wait. He could only follow Shi Shaoqin''s rules of the game step by step. "Squeak -" The sound of braking echoed in the night. According to Shi Shaoqin''s temperament, Gu Beichen didn''t find much place... When he finally stopped in the private area on the north coast, he got out of the car. From a distance, I looked at several villas separated by a lot of distance. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. After looking around for a week, his sight fell on two of the white villas. He went to one of the buildings first, looked around and smelled the strange things in the air. The mobile phone rings at the right time. Gu Beichen frowns slightly and picks up "Very fast," said Shi Shaoqin with a smile. "Unfortunately, it''s a step late!" Chapter 526 Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and opened his mouth indifferently: "but you are not distracted more and more..." With a sneer, Gu Beichen hung up without giving Shi Shaoqin a chance to speak. He looked at the dead villa in front of him, turned around and looked at the sea under the night, and frowned slightly. Shi Shaoqin''s work this time is obviously different from that in the past. There are places that people can''t understand everywhere. The shock of the arrival of the text message came from the mobile phone. Gu Beichen raised his hand and looked down at it Shi Shaoqin: I can''t find anyone anyway. Why don''t you... Have a drink? Gu Beichen: drink it yourself! Shi Shaoqin: aren''t you afraid that I''m bored alone and can only be happy with Jianmo? Gu Beichen: whatever! Shi Shaoqin: don''t you want to see Jian Mo? Come and have a drink with me and I''ll show you! Gu Beichen: delay time? Shaoqin, if I see you so easily, it won''t be you! After the reply, Gu Beichen turned coldly, didn''t want to pay attention to Shi Shaoqin, and walked to the yacht dock Gu Beichen doesn''t have much power on the seashore. As a place where some sensitive issues exist, this coastal city has its rules... The emperor doesn''t want to participate. Besides, this is where the Dragon owl lives. After getting the yacht, Gu Beichen opened the yacht and drifted aimlessly on the sea. Although I know that his trip is bound to be fruitless. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window of the apartment building and looked at the night under the bright seaside city, with a thin smile on the corners of his mouth. Chen, you are always too careful Come and have a drink with you. What a good chance! You have to let it go! Didn''t you say? As long as you can catch up with me, I''ll show you Jane Mo''s Hey! Shi Shaoqin sighed softly, went to the wine cabinet, opened the red wine, put it into the decanter, and then took the decanter and a goblet to the balcony. The bedroom was quiet. The soft wall lamp emits a calm and serene light. On such a big bed, Jane Mo sleeps on it vaguely With a bang, her body fell into the sea, and fear surrounded all Jane Mo''s nerves. Even she couldn''t feel the sting when she was hit. The sea water seemed to come under pressure from all around. Although Jian Mo could swim and hold his breath, he was disturbed by panic at that moment. The black silence and the salty taste of the sea attacked all the thoughts of Jane mo. she wanted to call for help The feeling of suffocation seemed to burst her heart. At the last moment, her thoughts stayed as if someone had swam, and she could no longer feel it. "Um" a cry came from the empty silence. Jane Mo frowned slightly, turned over, and woke up faintly Soft bed, serene breath... However, it can''t resist strange feelings. Jane Mo suddenly sat up, looked left and right, and finally opened the quilt and got out of bed. She first went to the window and looked. The bright night seemed to tell her that she was in a building in a city. I tried to open the door at the bedroom door No lock! Jane Morse had expectations in her eyes at that moment... Although she lived in constant disappointment these days. Slowly open the door, the bright light in the living room is a little dazzling. Jane Mo leaned out slowly, and there was no one in sight. She held her breath and walked forward. When she saw the man standing at the sliding door of the balcony and living room passage, she was surprised at first. Then when she saw the man, she opened her mouth in obvious surprise and couldn''t speak for a long time. Shi Shaoqin had a soft smile on his lips, and his handsome face was even more unreal in the light. "Is that you?" Jane Mo was stunned. "Why are you?" Jane Mo was immediately on guard. It wouldn''t be the ghost of this man from beginning to end, would it? "Surprised?" Shi Shaoqin said with a smile, "I''m also surprised." Jane Mo didn''t know what he meant, but she was alert at the bottom of her eyes. Shi Shaoqin didn''t seem to see Jian Mo''s preparedness. He just went to the kitchen and brought out the warm porridge and some snacks and dishes. "Ready to withdraw from the night snack. Are you going to come with me?" Shi Shaoqin sat down. "How did you come to the beach?" He looked at Jian Mo with some doubts, "how could it be in the sea?" Jian Mo sat carefully opposite Shi Shaoqin. "Do you live on the beach?" Shi Shaoqin nodded with a smile, "I remember as if I told you that I live by the sea..." Jane Mo frowned slightly. She couldn''t remember whether Shaoshi said to her, "what a coincidence to meet you!" Perhaps because of what happened these days, Jane Mo felt a little frightened at the moment. "Several friends and I were fishing at night, and two of them liked to swim at night..." Shi Shaoqin seemed to see through Jian Mo''s mind and scooped her porridge. "It''s good that they bet on going to the sea... In addition, we were accompanied by two ladies..." Shi Shaoqin raised his eyebrows and didn''t say anything else. Jane Mo was embarrassed and looked at her clothes. She just thought about something else and didn''t notice that her clothes had been changed. "What happened?" Shi Shaoqin asked. Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, shook her head and didn''t speak. Shi Shaoqin put the steamed bread on the plate in front of Jian Mo, "are you here on business?" Jane Mo was stunned and wanted to shake her head, but finally nodded. Her current situation is somewhat out of the scope of normal people''s life. She doesn''t know anything about it "But why are you in the... Sea?" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly. "If I say I''m not careful, will you believe it?" Jane Mo asked casually. Shi Shaoqin smiled, "then you say, I''ll try?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and didn''t speak. The atmosphere was a little awkward, and Jane Mo was a little uneasy... Although she was happy that she didn''t die, she survived too dramatically, not making TV, so many coincidences. He looked up and quietly looked at Shi Shaoqin opposite him. It''s not the first time to have dinner with him. I know this man''s behavior is very elegant... Such a man would be bewitched by him if she didn''t have Gu Beichen in her heart. "Alas..." Shi Shaoqin sighed softly. Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin suspiciously, "what''s the matter?" "I always knew you were a very careful and delicate person..." Shi Shaoqin put down his chopsticks, "but I didn''t expect you to be so alienated." Jane Mo blushed with embarrassment, "sorry, I..." Shi Shaoqin shook his head and stopped Jian Mo''s next words, "in fact, it''s normal. In today''s society, it''s better to be careful..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and didn''t speak. After a moment of silence, she asked tentatively, "well... Can I go later?" "No!" Shi Shaoqin shook his head calmly and said. As soon as Jane Mo listened, her mood tightened again. Chapter 527 Shi Shaoqin couldn''t laugh or cry. "I mean, you can''t wait... It''s very late. You have to leave tomorrow morning." Jane Mo breathed out and wanted to say that she would leave now, but she felt it was too much and could only nod. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s tense spirit. He sighed, "Jian Mo, what happened?" "No, it''s all right..." Jane Mo shook her head and was afraid to look directly into Shi Shaoqin''s eyes. She quickly lowered her head and began to eat. Shi Shaoqin didn''t ask any more. Suddenly, the atmosphere around him became awkward. After eating, Jian Mo took the initiative to clean up the dishes and wash them "You still live in the one just now. I have something to go out." Shi Shaoqin said softly, "it''s probably early morning when we come back... We''ll go after breakfast together, OK?" Jane nodded, then quickly shook her head, "you don''t have to go out and live..." Shi Shaoqin smiled. "You look very tired. If I''m in the same room with you, I don''t think your nerves will relax and you can''t have a good rest." "I still have a house downstairs. I can live there." Jane Mo blushed with embarrassment. Now she is really too careful. Shi Shaoqin left, leaving Jian Mo alone in the room. Looking around, Jian Mo was uneasy because Shi Shaoqin was a little relieved to leave. However, staying in a strange environment still made her unable to tense up. Jane Mo paced back and forth in the room, considering whether to leave Now she doesn''t know whether there are people who want to catch her outside. She doesn''t have communication tools or a penny. It''s obviously not wise to leave so rashly. The space is too quiet. Jane Mo turns a few times anxiously and sees the TV remote control on the tea table. She came forward and hurriedly turned on the TV Although it was late at night, she prayed to see the news about Gu Beichen. She missed him so much "Our news report..." After turning several stations, there was a station host with the word "emperor" under it. Jian Mo stopped at the first sight. "The emperor fell into an unprecedented economic crisis. JK went out independently at the right time, so that the emperor fell into trouble!" The host said, with a stock market distribution map on one side. Jane Mo looked at the news during the day. "Jian Heng... That is, Gu Heng now leads JK to compete with chenshao for the emperor. Since the battle between the crown prince of the palace and the illegitimate son began, chenshao has been tired of coping..." Jane Mo widened her eyes. She fanned her eyes and looked at the photos of Jane truss and Gu Beichen''s confrontation. For a moment, she was surprised and didn''t know what to do? what do you mean? Why is Jian Heng called Gu Heng? And what does illegitimate child mean? Jane Mo''s breath began to rush, and the news host was still talking about Los Angeles And then, the bigger blow almost made Jane foam at a loss. "It is said that Jian Mo''s suicide is actually because he knows the real relationship between her and Gu Beichen..." the host calmly broadcast, "after DNA comparison, it has been confirmed that Jian Chang is Gu Moyuan''s illegitimate son, and Jian Mo may also be Gu Moyuan''s and Su Mo''s illegitimate son..." Jane Mo''s eyes were as big as a copper bell. Her mouth was so surprised that she could put a quail egg in it. "Although the relationship between Jian Mo and Gu Beichen has not been confirmed, Chen Shao has not responded to Jian Mo''s suicide... Even used his personal relationship to suppress the news... It is hard to avoid thinking!" The host''s face seemed to be heavy, "today''s news is here, see you tomorrow!" Watching the subtitles cross quickly, watching the host pack up the press release... Jane Mo forgot all the reactions. Something in the body was evacuated instantly, "no, no... Definitely not..." She can''t be related by blood to Gu Beichen, and her mother can''t be related to Gu Moyuan... How can it be? impossible! "How can it be? It''s all fake... Absolutely impossible!" Jane Mo gasped. She didn''t know whether it was because of fear or something. In a panic, she picked up the remote control and turned off the TV. The space becomes quiet again, which makes Jian Mo''s breathing sound particularly obvious. Her eyes were empty looking at the TV with the black screen, and her chest heaved and heaved with heavy breathing. The eyelash feather trembled slightly, from just for a while at the beginning, to the constant trembling later. Black pupil was covered by dense tears. Jane Mo didn''t know what to do... Her head was empty. ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo standing in place on the video device, and a shallow smile gradually overflowed from the corners of his good-looking mouth. "You said..." Shi Shaoqin attached himself and picked up the red wine glass. "When can Jian Mo guess that it''s all fake?" Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin and grinned, "I''m afraid I won''t be able to react in a day or two?" "A day or two..." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly. "It''s too short." Morson didn''t dare to answer. Jane Mo''s first reaction must be confused when she meets such a thing After all, Qin Shao has always maintained a good gentleman demeanor in front of her. Today''s sudden appearance is too coincidental, but Jian Mo won''t think about it for the time being because of the previous concept of first in command in Los Angeles... In qinshao''s apartment, the TV news has been passive. Such news is a great blow to Jian mo... So that she dare not verify it and resists to think about it. How many people can accept this change when a lover becomes a relative? Besides, it''s still two people who have had a relationship! A day or two... I''m afraid Jane Mo can''t understand it? The sea at night always shows the treachery of swallowing all things. Gu Beichen made a aimless turn, and some decadent docked the yacht on the shore. He jumped down indifferently. Gu Beichen didn''t go anywhere. He sat down on the beach on one side. On his cold face, he couldn''t see any expression. The mobile phone vibrated ''buzzing'' in his pocket. Gu Beichen took it out calmly. Seeing that it was Shi Shaoqin, he broke it directly. Knowing that Mo''er is still alive, it''s no use for him to worry now Shi Shaoqin likes the trick of the cat flirting with the mouse. Now he can only play the mouse well so that the cat has no time to toss Mo''er. Shi Shaoqin didn''t call again, and Gu Beichen didn''t leave About an hour later, footsteps came from behind. Gu Beichen glanced back slightly and then converged his sight, "can''t you live without me?" With a bottle of red wine and two goblets in his hand, Shi Shaoqin sat down beside Gu Beichen. "How long haven''t we had a drink at the seaside together?" Gu Beichen got up indifferently, "not interested in calculating..." then he turned and wanted to leave. Chapter 528 "You waited for me here on purpose?" Shi Shaoqin asked slightly. Gu Beichen sighed slightly and stopped. A pair of deep eagle eyes looked at the front... The street lamps and lights pulled out a milky way, beautiful, but it made people feel cold and lonely. "I don''t wait for you, but you will come to me..." Gu Beichen said coldly, "Shaoqin, we are not the same as each other. You come to me this time, in fact... You have broken your promise." Shi Shaoqin slightly hooked up the corners of his mouth, with a soft smile on his good-looking face, "I set the rules." It''s like a simple sentence that controls life and death. Gu Beichen slightly tilted his head and glanced back. "So, I didn''t say anything..." he took back his eyes. "Mo''er is my weakness. You can do anything with her." He gradually narrowed the eagle''s eyes, and the bottom of his eyes shone two cruel lights, "but if you hurt her... Then we," paused, Gu Beichen''s thin lips hooked a cold smile, "let''s die together!" The words fell, and Shi Shaoqin was no longer given the chance to speak. Gu Beichen left the beach with big steps. "Hold me, and you''ll have time to save Jane Mo?" Shi Shaoqin''s call came faintly, mixed with the sea breeze, and showed the boundless under the long, "Chen, what you think is too simple." Gu Beichen stopped slowly, but only for a moment. Without saying anything, he lifted his steps again and walked forward Now he is more patient than Shi Shaoqin, but he suffers from worrying about Mo''er, so he will be anxious... Uneasy! If possible, it will be blind Gu Beichen got into the car and looked at the front with deep eyes. His thin lips slightly moved down and drove away. ¡­¡­ Jian Mo sat on the sofa stunned and looked at the front with dull eyes. There was no focus in her eyes. She doesn''t know how to face the news just now. It''s not really certified, is it? But... Why is her heart so flustered? The hand gently covered the lower abdomen, and the uneasiness gradually spread to the whole body. No, definitely not She and ah Chen can''t have such a relationship. Jane Mo closed her eyes in pain and slowly lay back on the sofa What is she going to do? Jane Mo found that she was too weak to stand a gossip. She is afraid to prove that she even wants to escape from the ostrich mentality Night, slowly past. When the sun rose slowly from the other end of the sea level and came in through the window, Jane Mo curled up on the sofa... I don''t know whether she was asleep or awake, and her body trembled. When the sound of opening the door came, Jane Mo frowned and slowly opened her heavy eyes Shi Shaoqin came in with breakfast in his hand and frowned slightly, "how did you fall asleep on the sofa?" He looked at Jane Mo''s face and frowned more and more. "You don''t look very well. Are you sick?" With that, Shi Shaoqin put breakfast on the table and wanted to see Jian mo. "I''m fine..." Jane Mo shook her head. "I''ll wash." Anyway, she always wants to understand... What''s the relationship between ah Chen and her. She can''t think about it like this. It''s not fair to ah Chen, nor to her... It''s not fair to the milk bag and the baby in the stomach. So dizzy Why are you so dizzy? Jane Mo only felt that her steps were somewhat vain. Stepping on the ground was like stepping on cotton. It was soft and could not use any strength. "Oh" a stuffy hum, his head seemed to be suddenly stabbed by a needle, and Jane Mo hurried to help his forehead. "Jane Mo, are you okay?" Shi Shaoqin stepped forward with an arrow and held Jian mo. Hand, touched Jian Mo''s hand, Shi Shaoqin frowned and said, "it''s so hot..." "I''m fine..." said Jane Mo, gritting her teeth. Shi Shaoqin ignored Jian Mo''s stubbornness and just put his hand on her forehead... The hot feeling came, and his eyes were deep. "You have a fever, I''ll take you to the hospital..." Shi Shaoqin said and wanted to turn around. "I''m not going!" Jian Mo was like a frightened bird with wide eyes and fear under resistance. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo as if puzzled. "If you are in a hurry to leave, I will arrange later... I can even take you back to Los Angeles. However, you are obviously uncomfortable at the moment, and I won''t let you leave like this..." Jane shook her head. She didn''t know if it was because of the child in her stomach. She instinctively resisted going to the hospital. Besides, now she is worried about drugs. She goes to the hospital and takes medicine again "If you don''t go to the hospital, I''ll find a doctor to show you." Shi Shaoqin finished and took out his mobile phone. "Don''t..." Jian Mo pressed Shi Shaoqin''s action to make a phone call. Seeing that he looked at her suspiciously, she hurriedly said, "I... I guess I caught a cold last night. I''ll have a hot water and have a rest later." Shi Shaoqin sighed, "do women don''t like going to the hospital?" He seemed helpless, "have some breakfast first and you have a rest... I''ll put an ice bag on it for you. If you can''t cool down, you must go to the hospital." Jane murmured at the corners of her mouth and nodded. Looking at the light and delicious food, Jane Mo has no appetite at all. After forcing herself to eat a few mouthfuls, Jane Mo dragged her sour body back to the bedroom Shi Shaoqin looked at her back, his narrow eyes narrowed gradually, and the corners of his beautiful mouth were filled with a faint smile. Got up and went to pour a glass of water. Calmly put a pill of medicine into the water... But in an instant, the medicine dissolved rapidly in the water and mixed with the water, and there was no sign of anything. "Have a cup of hot water..." Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin, then at the water cup. He touched his lower lip and drank without resistance. After Jianmo finished drinking, Shi Shaoqin took the water cup. "Have a good sleep. I''ll be outside. If I''m uncomfortable, call me... Huh?" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and nodded, "thank you." "Just take it as a small reward for designing the villa for me..." Shi Shaoqin turned out of the bedroom with a gentle look. Jane didn''t lie down until the door closed Although Shi Shaoqin was not familiar with him, Jian Mo didn''t have much defense after a moment of tension last night because of the agreement between the two people in many places. So that when she was facing Shi Shaoqin''s real identity, she was stunned and at a loss. ¡­¡­ Shi juechi confronted awei. "Awei, don''t force me!" Awei smiled, "never less. In fact, you and I both know... Jane Mo must be dead. Even if you go down to find... Can you find it?" "Even if it''s a corpse, I''ll look for it!" Shi Juxi snorted coldly. "The body?" Awei smiled. Because of the smile, the scar on his face was particularly dazzling. "A person who falls into the sea and has no ability to save himself... Never less, give up!" Chapter 529 "What if I don''t give up?" Shi Juxi asked coldly. He was as gentle as jade at any time. At this moment, he seemed to be shrouded by the God of darkness. One side of awei''s mouth was hooked up, and the appearance of Xie Yu made people feel that the scar on his face was even more terrible. "Let you die..." awei gradually restrained his smile. "I''m afraid not yet." Shi juechi frowned slightly. As soon as his pupils contracted, awei saw a cunning smile on the bottom of his eyes that could not be ignored... Then, before he could react, he fainted again. When he woke up again, Shi juechi looked at everything familiar in front of him and frowned slightly. He went back to the Mo palace! This time, I''m afraid it''s even more difficult to go out again Closing his eyes again, Shi Jue Chi''s brain sea was full of Jian Mo''s last despair... At that moment, his heart seemed to be twisted by a knife. Breathing, gradually a little heavy Shi juechi suddenly opened his eyes, and there was panic at the bottom of his eyes. Foam Shi Juxi suddenly sat up, lifted the quilt, put on his shoes and hurried out. When I opened the door, there were guards outside. "Never less!" The watchman saluted respectfully. "Shaoqin asked you to look at me?" Although Shi juechi was asking, he was obviously sure in his tone. The watchman got up and said, "yes!" Shi Jue Chi slightly clenched his hand, "where''s awei?" "After brother Wei sent him back, he left..." "Let Carney and the sample come to see me." Shi Juxi frowned and said. After the watchmen looked at each other and looked at Shi Juxi, "Qin Shao ordered that no one should see him until he came back." "Is he going to house arrest me?" Shi Jue Chi''s face was suddenly cold. "Jueshao''s activity range is within the scope of Mo palace, but... We will follow you until Qin Shao comes back!" Shi Juxi didn''t say anything, but went back to the bedroom with a cold hum and slammed the door shut. After finding his mobile phone, Shi Jue Chi Jing called Shi Shaoqin. "You tell me that Jane Mo is dead..." Shi Juxi gritted his teeth. "Still not dead?" "Awei reported to me yesterday that he was thrown into the sea." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was calm and elegant. He seemed to bear it even if he had a temper. "Don''t worry about him, just tell me... Is Jane Mo dead or alive?" Shi juechi is on the verge of outbreak. Shi Shaoqin was silent for a moment, and then asked, "juechi, did I tell you... If Jian Mo is dead, you will break with me?" There was a sadness in the shallow voice, which deeply shocked Shi Juxi''s heart. "Shaoqin..." "Think about it..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was slightly cold. He didn''t give Shi juechi a chance to speak, so he hung up the phone. Standing in front of the window, watching the sun gradually move to the west, Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful mouth was slightly cold. There was a sound of opening the door, and Morson came in with all the ingredients in his hand. "Qin Shao, he has guided him to half the seaside..." after putting down the ingredients, Mosen went to Shi Shaoqin and said, "if it continues, I''m afraid the Dragon owl will participate." Shi Shaoqin is not afraid of the Dragon owl, but the real background of the Dragon owl is in trouble all the time. Then... The game is really not fun. "Wait a minute..." Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth with a deep smile. Games are fun only when people''s nerves are tense. Morson didn''t say much. He answered and left the apartment. Shi Shaoqin turned and went to Jian Mo''s bedroom. His movements were very light, as if he was afraid of disturbing the sleeping people. "Well," a whining sound came, and Jane Mo woke up because of a small movement. "Awake?" Shi Shaoqin turned on the wall lamp and sat down beside the bed. His slender jade like hand gently put on Jian Mo''s forehead, "the fever has gone down..." Jane Mo has a blurred and lax color at the bottom of her eyes. She looked at Shi Shaoqin for a long time and asked, "who are you?" "Me?" Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were a little deep. In the deepest place, he had an emotion that people couldn''t find out, "are you confused?" He was light, and there was a little banter in his tone. Jane Mo frowned gently, and her eyes became more and more confused She was thinking of something, but it seemed that something was unreal, which made her unable to remember. Shi Shaoqin didn''t urge either. He just looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. His beautiful and handsome face was soft... Inexplicably reassuring. After a while, Jian Mo just looked at Shi Shaoqin and asked, "Shao Shi?" Shi Shaoqin smiled. "Fortunately... I have no memory loss due to fever." Then he got up, "fortunately, the fever has subsided. Get up and wash and get ready for dinner!" He smiled at Jane Mo and turned away. Jane Mo subconsciously got up and instinctively went to the bathroom in the room to wash Looking at herself in the mirror, Jane Mo felt a little strange. Until now, she suddenly realized... How could she be here? The center of the eyebrows frowned. Jane Mo felt as if she couldn''t remember something. The feeling of fragments made her feel a little uncomfortable. After washing out of the bedroom with doubts, the aroma of food came slightly, and Jian Mo looked in the direction of the kitchen I saw a shadow moving slightly behind the frosted glass door, and occasionally the sound of utensils came. Jane Mo was a little embarrassed. She came forward and opened the door. "Can I help you?" Shi Shaoqin looked back and smiled, "it''ll be fine soon..." Jian Mo''s eyes fell on the desk, ready for the food to be cooked, and looked at a casserole on the stove... The aroma floated out of it. "You have a fever, boil some light porridge... Just make some vegetables, huh?" Shi Shaoqin asked softly. Jane Mo nodded inexplicably and subconsciously, "OK." Just finished, Jane Mo couldn''t help frowning She and Shao Shi should not be so familiar? "Go and sit down first. It''ll be ready soon." Shi Shaoqin said with a smile, as if he didn''t see Jane Mo''s doubts. Jane Mo nodded, pulled the door and went to the table... Her head was always fuzzy. What kind of emptiness was lost in this way, which made her a little uneasy. Soon, Shi Shaoqin brought out the food Jane Mo couldn''t wait. "Why am I here?" She asked anxiously, "where is this?" Shi Shaoqin''s face changed slightly, but disappeared in a flash. "Have something to eat first, huh?" Even for a moment, Jian Mo found Shi Shaoqin''s slightly changed expression... In this case, she was even more upset. "Shao Shi?" Jane murmured her lips. Shi Shaoqin heaved a sigh, and his eyes looked at Jian Mo seriously. "I saved you from the Los Angeles River. You have been in a coma intermittently for several days..." "Why?" Jane Mo''s eyes widened, as if puzzled, "why am I... I''m in the Los Angeles River?" Shi Shaoqin looked more dignified. "Jian Mo, are you sure you want to know why?" Chapter 530 Jian Mo frowned and looked at Shi Shaoqin, more puzzled. Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes, and his eyelashes gathered the emotion from the bottom of his eyes. When he raised his eyes again, the complex emotion was heavy. Jane Mo''s heart was uncontrollably raised to her throat. She swallowed nervously and waited. "I don''t know the details..." Shi Shaoqin said slowly. "I went back to Los Angeles to see the villa. I had an appointment to meet you at Wangjiang building, and then..." He didn''t go on, and then what happened... Jane Mo naturally knew that she jumped into the river? "Impossible..." Jane Mo frowned at Shi Shaoqin and couldn''t figure out how she could jump into the river. "Can''t you remember?" Shi Shaoqin was surprisingly light. Jane Mo frowned and shook her head with a blank face. Shi Shaoqin sighed, "I can''t remember... Maybe it''s good." He didn''t say anything more. "Eat... You haven''t eaten for a long time." Jane Mo did feel hungry, but she was not in the mood to eat. "You know why, don''t you?" Asked Jane mo. Shi Shaoqin stared at Jian Mo and saw that she would not compromise until she found the reason. She simply put down the dishes and chopsticks. "This thing... In fact, it''s good for you to forget." Shi Shaoqin''s voice also became slightly dignified. "Jian Mo, people sometimes have to learn to put down rather than stick to the past." "Shao Shi..." Jian morhu said to his lower lip, "whether it''s pain or not, it''s a part of my life. I shouldn''t forget... Moreover, I may just forget temporarily because of coma or fever. When I think of it, I don''t have any preparation in my heart. I''m afraid it will only be more painful!" Such a rhetorical question made Shi Shaoqin''s eyes deep, but... The deep emotion was covered. "There is a rumor in Los Angeles..." Shi Shaoqin said slowly, "you and Jian Chang are Gu Moyuan''s illegitimate children." Without too many words, Jane Mo suddenly widened her eyes She looked at Shi Shaoqin incredulously, as if she was sure. Shi Shaoqin nodded slightly, and his face was dignified. "So, ah Chen and I......" Jane Mo breathed heavily, and then she didn''t dare to continue. Shi Shaoqin sighed deeply, "I don''t know the details. I just heard the news after saving you. I don''t know if it''s because of this... I''m not sure." After a pause, he seemed to be wondering whether to continue, "later, Gu Beichen held a press conference and admitted the relationship between Jian Heng and Gu''s family." "What about me?" Jane Mo asked hurriedly. Shi Shaoqin stared at Jian Mo, "declared dead..." Jane Mo was stunned by such a change. She didn''t dare to imagine that things were developing like this... But I don''t know why, subconsciously, there was such a memory. Jane Mo was silent. She lowered her eyes mechanically and began to eat... One mouthful at a time, without taste or any perception. "Jane Mo?" There was worry in Shi Shaoqin''s voice. "I''m fine!" Jane Mo responded faintly, and her tone made people unable to hear her emotions. Shi Shaoqin smiled at the bottom of his eyes and didn''t speak, as if he wanted Jian Mo to digest such things. The beautiful corners of the mouth slightly scratched a thin smile, but it disappeared in an instant It must be interesting to see the person you love begin to resist appearing in front of her... Chen, you will like this gift I gave you. ¡­¡­ The car stopped on the roadside. Gu Beichen was tired and lay back on the car The eagle''s eyes slightly gathered and fell in front through the windshield. A haze gradually rose on his cold, carved face. There was a cool breeze coming out of the air conditioner, but there was no way to dissipate Gu Beichen''s dryness and heat at the moment. Shi Shaoqin is procrastinating, but he can''t do anything What the hell does he want? Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and the eagle''s eyes were deep and bottomless. According to Shi Shaoqin''s temperament, he can foresee the opportunity to wait for him Now his weakness is Mo''er, and the root of sadness and pain must also come from Mo''er. Clearly know, but can do nothing... Such weakness, he can only face now. The mobile phone vibrated, Gu Beichen slightly restrained his mind, took out his mobile phone and opened the text message "Do you think Jane is on the beach?" Gu Beichen''s hands are tight. There is no text message from Shi Shaoqin at the regular meeting But three or five seconds later, the text message came again. It was sent by Shi Shaoqin! "Chen, I''ll give you another day... If you can find Jane Mo, I''ll give her back to you." "No empty words!" Then another one came in. Gu Beichen slowly sat upright, looked at the words "no empty words" for a while, and directly dialed Shi Shaoqin''s phone "What do you mean?" Gu Beichen''s voice was a little cold. Shi Shaoqin smiled and said slowly, "literally." "Shaoqin, you should know..." Gu Beichen stared slightly. "As long as you''re on the beach, one day... It''s too much for me." "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin said lightly, "but one day, you don''t know where I am. Are you so sure... Can you find Jian Mo?" "Then why don''t we try?" Gu Beichen hissed coldly. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow Phoenix eyes narrowed slightly, "I''ll wait for you..." He dropped his hand and hung up. Listening to the "beep beep" hanging up sound on the phone, Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and his thin lips overflowed with a cold and treacherous smile. Drooping eyes, his thick fingers crossed the mobile phone screen, and a phone dialed out "Chen Shao?" A respectful voice came. Gu Beichen looked at the front, and the eagle''s eyes were indifferent and asked, "did you find the telephone signal source just now in which area?" "One minute..." When the voice of the other party comes, the sound of knocking the keyboard comes. Gu Beichen answered and waited quietly Shi Shaoqin will not be defenseless. He will track the line, but sometimes people are too conceited and often ignore some small problems. "The path password is set for the line." As a result, Gu Beichen was not surprised, "general orientation?" "Within the East Third Ring Road!" Gu Beichen listened and smiled slightly at the corners of his mouth As the most developed city along the coast, even if it is within the East Third Ring Road, it is also a considerable area... Here, deviation is not included. However, even so, it is more convenient than looking for a needle in a haystack in the whole city. "Arrange people and cars," Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, "I want to make sure I get rid of the tracking." "I see!" Gu Beichen calmly pressed the phone, and a sneer overflowed from the corners of his mouth Start the car and leave. Gu Beichen didn''t go directly to the East Third Ring Road... But went straight to a garage in the opposite direction. If you want to get rid of Moore''s eyeliner, you will have enough time to find Shi Shaoqin in the East Third Ring Road, and then find Mo Er... This is an intellectual struggle. Chapter 531 Probably because she had slept all day, Jane Mo didn''t feel sleepy at all. She stood in front of the window and looked at the night view of the seaside city. Her slightly haggard face was at a loss... There was no color at the bottom of her eyes, as if she had lost her luster. She just stood in a daze and didn''t move for a long time. Shi Shaoqin looked at her back, his eyes were deep, and a cold smile overflowed from the corners of his beautiful mouth. "Jian Mo......" Shi Shaoqin shouted. Jane Mo turned slowly and looked at him with a dull look in her eyes. The whole person seemed to have lost his soul. "Your body is just getting better. You can''t stand it for so long..." Shi Shaoqin said, walked up and handed her the water cup in his hand. "Drink a glass of water, huh?" Jane Mo looked down, took the cup mechanically, and then drank it slowly... Everything naturally seemed to have been done thousands of times, and seemed to have been hypnotized. After drinking, Jane Mo frowned slightly, as if there was something in her head, and there was a voice saying something at the bottom of her heart, but that perception just flashed and disappeared. "Oh" came, and the water cup slipped from his hand The sound of "bang Dang" came, and the glass burst on the ground. At the same time, Jane Mo only felt a slight darkness in front of her eyes, and the whole person was dizzy. Shi Shaoqin quickly held Jian Mo, who was about to collapse, "Jian Mo?" "I..." Jane Mo just spit a word. It was dark in front of her eyes and she had fainted. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, grabbed Jian Mo horizontally, and calmly took her to the bedroom Under the soft light, Jane Mo''s face was slightly pale, and her forehead gradually overflowed with a fine cold sweat. "I''m looking forward to......" Shi Shaoqin said, "what was his mood when he saw you..." The faint words echoed in the room like ghosts, floating in the air, and made people''s hair stand up ¡­¡­ Los Angeles, Huakang hospital. Li Yunze took off his surgical suit and looked a little tired. Recently, because of Gu Beichen, he didn''t get a good rest. Several consecutive operations completely exhausted him. "Li Shao, drink some water and have a rest?" The head nurse put the warm water on the desk. Li Yunze nodded slightly and sat down, "how''s Chu Zixiao?" "As usual, there is no big change." The head nurse sighed, "Hey, Gu family doesn''t know whether it''s too old this year... It''s one thing after another." Li Yunze glanced at the head nurse, didn''t speak, and drank water. "Li Shao, if it''s all right, I''ll go out first..." the head nurse said, turned and walked out. Just when she got to the door, she suddenly remembered something and said, "by the way, you are invited to attend the national neurosurgery seminar next week..." Li Yunze rubbed his eyebrows, as if thinking whether to go or not. "This time, Yashu hospital is the main organizer... The president just called in person when you were undergoing surgery." Said the head nurse. Li Yunze frowned slightly and finally nodded. It''s important to be friendly with the dean of the hospital. However, Li Yunze never thought... This academic exchange meeting will let him see the one he misses most in his life, but he doesn''t want to see most! Under the same sky, different cities have different joys and sorrows. Gu Beichen was dressed in one-piece clothes of car maintenance workers and a duck tongue hat with the factory name printed... Even the most ordinary work clothes were forcibly spread by him. "Chen Shao, we are all ready..." Gu Beichen nodded slightly and got on a vehicle rescue vehicle. It''s already a little dawn. A series of car accidents occurred on the East Second Ring Road at night. As a rescue, the car factory has cooperated with the traffic police to tow the car away Morson looked at the rescue car from a distance. His eyes were slightly deep. When it started, he also followed up. However, after a short time, he suddenly stepped on the brake... Then started to quickly come forward and stopped in front of the rescue vehicle. The morning light was faintly projected on the body of the car. The driver peeped out his head angrily and scolded, "how do you drive, ah?" Morson gave him a cold look. The driver was frightened by such cold and bloodthirsty eyes, and people forgot to respond for a time. When Mosen pulled the door and looked at the workers on the co pilot, his eyes gathered slightly, "where are the people here?" "What... Who?" The worker was frightened by the cold on Morson, "one, always... Always me!" Morson gave him a cold look, turned into the car without saying anything, and galloped to the scene of the accident "Qin Shao, Gu Beichen lost him!" Morson called on the way. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window with his pocket in one hand. Looking at the dawn, he frowned slightly, and his eyes were disgusted, "HMM." He just answered faintly. Morson frowned slightly, "that..." "He''s changed..." Shi Shaoqin smiled at the corners of his beautiful mouth, and there was longing in the bottom of his eyes... The morning light that he hated just now became a little better at this moment. Without saying anything more, Shi Shaoqin hung up. All good things are used to destroy Shi Shaoqin''s handsome face gradually shrouded in a layer of haze, and the bottom of his eyes was even more sinister, as if... To pull all the light into the dark silence. ¡­¡­ A police car stopped at the roadside of the "lake and mountain scenery" gate. "Please, officer Chen." Gu Beichen spoke faintly. Officer Chen quickly waved his hand, "Chen Shao is polite... He didn''t help much." Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly hooked the corners of his mouth, "make up after feeling!" Then he nodded slightly, opened the door and got out of the car. There will be a car accident on the East Second Ring Road, but it''s all a play directed by him At first, he knew he couldn''t deceive Morson. Ninety percent of Morson may know that he left with the wreckage rescue vehicle. What he needs... Is just another identity to leave, that''s all. Looking at the navigation map in his hand, Gu Beichen looked at the rising number of the elevator. At that moment, his heart was tightening because of tension. The elevator reached the floor with a "Ding" sound. Gu Beichen slowly looked up and looked at the elevator door ''clattering'' slowly opening... At that moment, the eagle eyes gathered slightly and opened. With a steady and slow step, Gu Beichen went out and stood in front of the only door on the floor At that moment, he forgot to breathe! He was almost sure that Shi Shaoqin was here, but mor had no way to guarantee... Even so, he had become heavy breathing because of expectation and tension at the moment. Knock on the door Gu Beichen didn''t leave the observation range of cat''s eye. If he could find here, Shi Shaoqin would not refuse him outside the door. A slight voice came. Gu Beichen had forgotten. When was he so nervous in his life? The thin lips slightly pricked, and the temples twitched because of tension... At this time, the door was opened from the inside. Gu Beichen looked at the man who opened the door. At that moment, he was surprised and forgot himself. He just instinctively shouted, "Mo''er?" Chapter 532 Surprise came fiercely with the surprise. Gu Beichen took a big step forward and took people into his arms at the next moment The long arm was gradually tightened uncontrollably. Gu Beichen closed his eyes and sniffed the breath on Jian mo... at that moment, he was afraid that he was an illusion. From being together, to falling in love, to parting... To meeting and falling in love again later! All the things that have come all the way are gathered in my mind at this moment. But in an instant, she was shocked by Jane Mo''s death "Mo''er, Mo''er..." Gu Beichen whispered, holding Jian Mo tightly. It seems that he has forgotten that the last thing he should do at the moment is to hold Jane Mo and expose himself recklessly without defense But... The feeling of being lost and recovered is not excited or moved... But, fortunately! I''m glad we can meet again. I''m glad... We can breathe the same air. Fortunately... I can still have you in my life! "Well..." Jane Mo was hugged by Gu Beichen''s unknown strength and felt a little painful, and gently snorted. Gu Beichen suddenly reacted and hurriedly let go of Jian mo. Jun''s face was worried, "Mo''er?" Jane Mo frowned, glanced sideways at Gu Beichen with a dissatisfied look on her face, and pushed him away. "Who are you? You''re like this..." after a pause, she continued to say, "don''t you know it''s impolite?" "..." Gu Beichen forgot his reaction when asked by Jian Mo, and could only stare at her in a daze. For a long time, thin lips gently opened their doubts and shouted, "Mo''er?" Jian Mo also looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously. There was a turbid breath in her mind... It was as if she had been stuffed with cotton in her heart, which immediately blocked up badly. "Mo''er?" Gu Beichen felt something wrong with Jian Mo, so he stepped forward and wanted to have a look. However, Jane Mo instinctively retreated back In this way, Gu Beichen seemed to have half a body into the door. Behind the porch, Shi Shaoqin stood behind Jian Mo, a pair of narrow Phoenix eyes slightly picked an indifferent radian, and the corners of his beautiful mouth were hooked with a thin smile. "Mo''er, are there any guests?" Shi Shaoqin asked, but he looked at Gu Beichen. Jane Mo looked back at him, "this man is very strange..." she was a little confused, "do I know him?" A rhetorical question was to interact with Shi Shaoqin, but Gu Beichen was deeply shocked. The intimate address has stunned him, but the "strangeness" at the moment has deeply shocked him! A pair of eagle eyes looked sharply at Shi Shaoqin, but in an instant, under the lightning flint, a "pa pa" flame burst out, as if to burn each other at any time. Shi Shaoqin''s good-looking corners of his mouth were shallow with a smile. On his beautiful face, he had the impulse to wave his fist... Even the smile at the bottom of his eyes hurt Gu Beichen''s eyes at this moment. I see He didn''t worry about finding Mo''er at all. Even, from beginning to end, he might just lead him over. Just to let him see... Now Mo''er doesn''t know him at all. Not only that, but even... It is possible to have a close relationship with Shi Shaoqin! Hands, hold tight! The misplaced sound of "Gaga" echoes in the space with dignified atmosphere, which is particularly harsh. Jian Mo frowned slightly, looked at Gu Beichen, looked back at Shi Shaoqin, as if seeking an explanation. Jane Mo''s strange eyes, like a knife, stabbed Gu Beichen''s heart with blood! "Shao Shi?" Jian Mo asked suspiciously when she saw that Shi Shaoqin didn''t intend to explain. "Shiqin smiled at him and said......" "He and I are ''very good'' friends!" Gu Beichen answered and deliberately accentuated the word "very good". Shi Shaoqin raised the corners of his mouth without refuting. Gu Beichen''s voice was leisurely, as if what had just happened had not happened. "We met a long time ago," he coldly took back his sight from Shi Shaoqin''s face, looked at Jian Mo, softened a lot, and said slowly, "you probably don''t remember me." Jane Mo frowned and drooped her eyes, trying to think about it, but she couldn''t remember But, just being held by this person, I felt a sense of happiness inexplicably. Maybe... They really met before, but it''s too long for her to remember. Didn''t Shao Shi say that she couldn''t remember many things because of a high fever? A touch of guilt crossed his eyes. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and said, "I can''t remember many memories clearly. I''m sorry..." "It doesn''t matter!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a spoiled smile, "I''ll make you remember..." at the same time, he looked at Shi Shaoqin and his eyes were dark, "because... I''ll be with you recently." Shi Shaoqin smiled, especially addictive. "Really?" Jian Mo was excited at the bottom of her eyes. She looked back at Shi Shaoqin and waited for confirmation. "Of course..." Shi Shaoqin always looked at Gu Beichen. "We haven''t seen each other for so many years. If you come and go in a hurry this time... I really don''t agree!" Jane Mo listened and was immediately happy. "I''ll buy vegetables and have dinner together later." "Don''t go..." Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo in a soft voice. "Your body is just getting better. It''s too hot outside. It''s not good to get heatstroke back." Then he looked at Gu Beichen again, "I''ll just go with him..." "Good." Jane nodded. Shi Shaoqin came forward and spoiled Jian Mo''s head. "The dessert has been prepared. You should eat it first, huh?" Jane Mo smiled happily and nodded, "OK... But I''ll cook later." Shi Shaoqin didn''t say anything, but spoiled and pinched Jian Mo''s nose. Jane Mo blushed, looked at Gu Beichen, pushed Shi Shaoqin, "you and him..." she paused, looked at the hidden sadness on Gu Beichen''s face, and the unknown convulsion of her heart. Just now, I was also happy because of Shi Shaoqin''s doting, as if I had hit the ground all at once. "Hello..." Gu Beichen slowly stretched out his hand. His cold face was full of hidden complex emotions. His thin lips gently said slowly, "I''m Gu Beichen!" Obviously, they are the two most familiar people. Now it seems that everything has returned to zero Gu Beichen doesn''t know how others react to such things. At the moment, his heartache can''t describe his helplessness. Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin and put his hand gently in Gu Beichen''s hand The rough feeling is warm, and the touch has a familiar feeling. Jane Mo was surprised and hurriedly took back her hand. She didn''t even introduce herself. She had turned around in a hurry "I, I''ll have dessert..." Light words came, and there was resistance in the voice. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and listened to Shi Shaoqin slowly ask, "do you suddenly feel... It''s better to miss when you meet?" Chapter 533 Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes lifted slightly, and the fierce light shot forward, "how could it?" The voice of light eh fell, and he looked at Shi Shaoqin. "It''s empty to miss that. Only when we meet... Isn''t it?" "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin said softly. Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a radian. The smile was stiff in the corners of his mouth and never spread, "I can make Jane Mo fall in love with me once... I can make her fall in love with me a second time!" Firm voice, firm eyes... Full of ridicule. Shi Shaoqin smiled. Unlike Gu Beichen, his smile instantly spread over Junyan and reached the bottom of his eyes. "I''ll wait and see..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was so relaxed and pleasant that people couldn''t hear whether he was mocking or really felt that Gu Beichen had this ability. Step up and walk out Gu Beichen''s temples moved slightly. After looking inside the room, he also turned out. At the moment he closed the door, Jane Mo came out with caramel pudding, slightly tilted her head and frowned... The black pupil was full of thinking under doubt. Mosen drove, Shi Shaoqin and Gu Beichen sat behind... No one spoke! Morson looked in the rearview mirror and finally parked his car in the underground garage of a large supermarket affiliated to the Dragon Empire group. Just looking at the appearance can make everyone look sideways, and they also have a strong aura... When such two men appeared in the supermarket, everyone seemed to forget what they were going to do. "I didn''t expect you to study food very well." Shi Shaoqin sees Gu Beichen picking dishes indifferently. Gu Beichen put the celery into the shopping cart. "It''s not as scary as pushing the shopping cart!" With indifference, Gu Beichen continued to choose ingredients... They are all Jane Mo''s favorite. "Are you sure she likes these things?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t mind Gu Beichen''s sarcasm. Gu Beichen didn''t answer directly. He was completely lazy to talk to you. Please don''t talk to me Shi Shaoqin was indeed quiet, but his smile deepened as he looked at the ingredients Gu Beichen put into the shopping cart. ¡­¡­ The Dragon owl listened to the report of the undertaker. His carved face was indifferent without any expression. People couldn''t see what he was thinking. "Xiao Shao, do you want to..." "No." The Dragon owl opened his mouth lightly and looked out of the window with sharp eyes. A beautiful figure was combing the hair of the tall wolf dog, "Beichen came and didn''t inform me. He just wanted to solve it by himself..." After a pause, he looked back, "this matter must be solved by himself." The person behind him didn''t answer, just slightly lowered his eyes and his face was a little heavy. "There''s always a bomb in Jane''s heart. He''ll never live in it." The Dragon owl turned around, went to the small bar, opened the wine and poured a cup for himself and the person who had just reported, "people should be responsible for their own life and move forward, others... No one can help." "Xiao Shao is not afraid of Chen Shao''s injury?" The Dragon owl''s eyes were slightly deep. "Those three months have come through... He, what else can''t come through?" Every scar is a man''s journey. Now... His biggest injury comes from Jane mo. And the biggest cure comes from Jian mo Jian Mo is in Shi Shaoqin''s hands. It depends on how firm they are to each other. He raised his hand, put the goblet on his lips and took a shallow sip. The mellow fragrance at the entrance stimulates the taste buds. The Dragon owl subconsciously deviates his head and looks at the beautiful shadow outside... The bottom of his eyes is completely gentle. However, such tenderness flashed by, and even he didn''t know it. ¡­¡­ It''s been two hours since Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin came back from buying ingredients. When Jian Mo saw the ingredients, she obviously frowned and wondered... She even looked at Shi Shaoqin with dissatisfaction. Shi Shaoqin came forward and spoiled Jian Mo''s hand. "It''s Beichen''s favorite." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, dun felt embarrassed and looked at Gu Beichen Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at Jane Mo suspiciously. "Well... Just like it." Jane Mo said in embarrassment. "You don''t like it?" Gu Beichen has seen from Jian Mo''s first reaction, but he still wants to be sure. Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth. "Yes, yes..." she shrugged. "Unexpectedly... What you like is what I don''t like." Seeing Gu Beichen''s face slightly darkened, she hurriedly said, "it doesn''t matter. You''re a guest." "..." Gu Beichen immediately didn''t know how to answer. Jane Mo also felt a little embarrassed and hurriedly said, "I''ll cook." Looking at her escape, Gu Beichen seemed to have to enter the kitchen. Gu Beichen sighed secretly. Shi Shaoqin went to the wine cabinet, took it out and poured two cups. The smile on the corners of his mouth overflowed... He glanced at Gu Beichen and was full of enjoyment. "I don''t like what I like..." Gu Beichen said, "that''s just proof of one thing." "What?" Shi Shaoqin asked casually. Gu Beichen sneered at his thin lips, "it shows that... Mo''er likes me and doesn''t like you!" "..." Shi Shaoqin was slightly stunned and then smiled calmly, "if this can comfort you." He poured two glasses of red wine. "Try it?" Gu Beichen picked up one of the cups and held it in front of him, shaking it slightly. The eagle''s eyes asked slowly and deeply, "there''s no silence in this wine, right?" At the same time, he looked up and faced Shi Shaoqin. "Guess what?" Shi Shaoqin picked his eyebrow and said, "Beichen, you are very smart... Unfortunately, you found it too late." "Everyone makes mistakes. I need to know how to face it." Gu Beichen sneered, "unlike some people, they don''t understand!" "Gu Beichen..." Shi Shaoqin seemed to be trampled on the pain, and his face suddenly changed slightly. In this world, no one can make Shi Shaoqin change his face... Because all the people who can make him change his face are dead. But Gu Beichen is the only one "I''m sorry..." Gu Beichen''s eyes twinkled with coldness under the dark belly, and the corners of his mouth smiled. "I''m a man who will repay if I''m evil." He said, looked up and poured all the wine in the cup into his mouth The top-level things should have been tasted while enjoying. Unfortunately Gu Beichen put down his glass, went to the sofa and turned on the TV... The news came out about the speculation about the life experience between Jian Mo and him? The eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly, and Gu Beichen looked coldly at Shi Shaoqin. He has dealt with all the news. How can there be any more? "Did you tell Jane Mo in this way?" Gu Beichen''s voice was as cold as if he were in a cold day. Almost without thinking, he could know... Shi Shaoqin tampered with the TV signal. Shi Shaoqin smiled calmly and didn''t speak. Gu Beichen turned off the TV. "Then I''m very curious... Since you showed her this news, it made her feel bad... Why did you let her ''lose her memory''?" Chapter 534 "Guess what?" Shi Shaoqin slightly picked up the end of the sentence and asked with a smile, "or you should ask me... Why stay here and don''t lead you to Mo palace?" Gu Beichen glanced at the direction of the kitchen. There was a sound of water ''splashing'' in it. In addition to the strange environment and Shi Shaoqin, he felt that he and Jian mo were only in their home for a moment. However... Trance is just trance. Gu Beichen looked at Shi Shaoqin. "Two men, one woman..." he sneered, "it''s just a third party." Shi Shaoqin smiled, took a sip of red wine and picked his eyebrows... As if he admired the alcohol of the wine again. "Your game will have more and more ''new ideas'' at that time..." Gu Beichen snorted coldly, "it''s just that you''ve been persistent in destroying other people''s feelings." Shi Shaoqin shrugged his shoulders. "I''m flattered." "Shaoqin, why don''t we... Have a bet?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes are slightly deep. "If you let Jane Mo fall in love with you again... I''ll let you take her?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t need Gu Beichen to say anything, but began to speak slowly. Yes, yes. Gu Beichen''s eyes became more and more familiar, "if I can''t make her fall in love with me again, I''ll go back to the ink palace with you!" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, "how do you feel... I''m at a loss?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak... Sometimes, he had to admit that it was Shi Shaoqin who knew him best in the world! "Win, you go together. Lose... You saved Jian Mo, and then you can fight for the chance to leave according to the rules..." Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes, "but... I like your suggestion." The sliding door of the kitchen was opened. Shi Qin and Shao Gu Bei go to see Seeing Jian Mo sticking out his head, he looked at Gu Beichen first, then moved away as if frightened, looked at Shi Shaoqin and said, "there''s no vinegar at home..." A "home" pierced Gu Beichen''s heart like a thorn. Even if it hurt, he didn''t show a penny. Shi Shaoqin glanced at Beichen and replied, "I''ll go down and buy..." That kind of look is like saying, I''m giving you a chance... Remember to take advantage of it! Shi Shaoqin left the apartment, stood at the door with his hands in his pockets, turned his head and glanced at the closed door... The corners of his beautiful mouth were full of evil and treacherous. With a ''ding'', the elevator opens Shi Shaoqin walked in indifferently. Instead of buying vinegar, he went down to the bottom layer. "Qin Shao?" Mausen saluted respectfully. "Let people buy vinegar." Mohsen frowned slightly and invisibly, and answered, "yes!" Shi Shaoqin turned and walked to the window Because of the relationship between angle and time, the sun is on his back at the moment, and he can only see the shadows cast by all things. "Qin Shao, just leave them two on it?" Morson was worried, or... He was really curious. Shi Shaoqin narrowed his narrow eyes slightly, and his gentle voice spilled over his lips. "Both silence and silence DS are in the experimental stage... I''ll see if Jian Mo will be on schedule." Morson didn''t speak, but looked at the video device on one side... It was like the whole picture in the living room and dining room upstairs. In fact, he doesn''t understand If Qin Shao wants to see Jian Mo, why only put monitors in the living room and dining room? "Well... Why don''t I make you a cup of coffee first?" Jian Mo brought out two dishes. Seeing Gu Beichen sitting on the sofa thoughtfully, he pulled the corners of his mouth and asked. Gu Beichen tilted his head, and the eagle''s eyes coagulated Jian Mo deeply, "OK..." The low and magnetic voice made Jane Mo inexplicably happy. She nodded with a smile at the corners of her mouth and went to make coffee. Before long, the aroma of coffee came. Shi Shaoqin''s life is exquisite, and the things prepared are naturally top-grade Gu Beichen sipped, "Esmeralda?" He said softly, looking at Jian Mo with a slight hook at the corner of his mouth, "is this kind of coffee?" Jane Mo was slightly stunned and quickly shook her head. "No, there are two... I just, just..." she was a little embarrassed. "I just think you''ll like this." Speaking of the end, Jane Mozhe glanced at the corner of her lips and black pupil examined Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen smiled like that, but it reached the bottom of his eyes in an instant Some things are deeply rooted. Will not forget because of "amnesia". Jane Mo remembers his preferences... How can she forget such unforgettable love? The time they need... That''s all. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s face and smiled slightly. "You should smile more." "I''m just surprised you''ll know what I like..." Gu Beichen also said at the right time. The words of the two people were like a soul. As soon as Jane Mo heard it, she was very happy at that moment. But she didn''t notice such joy. There was a noise at the door. Shi Shaoqin took his pocket with one hand and came in with a bottle of vinegar in the other hand "Bought it back?" Jane Mo said in surprise, hurried forward, took the vinegar and went to the kitchen. However, at the moment of opening the kitchen door, she looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen calmly drank coffee and looked up at Shi Shaoqin. "Let Mo palace be the leader. Qin Shao go to buy vinegar. I don''t know if Jianghu people will feel like seeing you for a long time!" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly. He didn''t understand Gu Beichen''s "see you for a long time"... But he thought it was sarcastic. "Don''t understand?" Gu Beichen smiled shallowly, "it''s also... After all, you and Mo''er are fake! It''s normal for you not to understand her Internet addiction." "If you tease me like this, you can get a little comfort..." Shi Shaoqin seemed to understand and sat down beside Gu Beichen. "Go on." Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, so he heard Shi Shaoqin continue: "it''s just... Chen, when did you become so childish?" "After being with Mo''er..." Gu Beichen glanced at Shi Shaoqin. The original relaxed conversation, but in an instant, the two people looked at each other with lightning and flint. "Shaoqin," Gu Beichen slightly picked his eyebrows and tail, "from the moment I came to face you, you should understand... I was prepared for the worst." Shi Shaoqin smiled slowly, and the warm smile... Gradually, it became cold. "I hope... You can always be so firm." With that, Shi Qin got up and took back his sight. He took his pocket with both hands, glanced slightly sideways and lowered his eyes, "I suddenly thought again... You are firm enough, but if Jian Mo is hurt... Will you be firm when life is worse than death?" The smile gradually spread in the fundus of the eyes, showing the sarcasm under the cold "Shi Shaoqin!" Gu Beichen clenched his teeth and shouted. The man ''Teng'' stood up, and the eagle''s eyes were sharp against Shi Shaoqin. Chapter 535 Shi Shaoqin looked at Gu Beichen. The cold smell suddenly overflowing from him seemed to freeze his surroundings. The smile spread slowly "Tut tut..." Shi Shaoqin shook his head, "Chen, it''s really bad to expose his feelings like this." Gu Beichen snorted coldly, "Mo''er is my only weakness now. I hide... Useful?" "It''s no use..." Shi Shaoqin shook his head seriously. "Hum!" Gu Beichen snorted coldly, "I live next door to Mo''er!" "Whatever..." Shi Shaoqin smiled. "If you can climb into her bed, I''ll let you." After a pause, his smile deepened, "you know, the person I most want to hurt... Is you. As long as you want, I will achieve it for you." "Why don''t you die?" Eh, Gu Beichen''s voice was cold. Shi Shaoqin smiled and didn''t speak. He just looked at the direction of the kitchen. Gu Beichen coldly withdrew his sight and turned to see... Jian Mo came out with a plate in one hand. "You can have dinner..." Jane Mo looked at the two people with a smile, "just go on Tommy." "OK." Shi Shaoqin smiled spoiled. Jane Mo''s face was a little shy and dyed a little crimson. After looking at Gu Beichen, she slightly wrinkled her eyebrows, turned and entered the kitchen again. A meal, Jane Mo ate a little depressed. I don''t know why. Every time she looks at Beichen, she feels like she can''t say it. That feeling made her resist, as if a hand kept pulling her back... It made her suffocate. However, she somehow wanted to see him again. It seems that there are many things hidden in this person''s eyes... Attracting people to explore. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles, Huakang hospital. "Drop, drop, drop..." the regular sound of the heart rate instrument echoed in the intensive care unit. Chu Zixiao''s face was haggard and pale, lying on the hospital bed with no vitality at all. A little nurse pushed the door and came in with a medical tray in her hand, in which several drugs were placed. Put down the tray, the little nurse routinely checked the data of the instrument, and after recording... Opened the medicine and injected it into the drip hose. "Hey, it''s a pity that a famous mouth can only lie here now." The little nurse looked at Chu Zixiao and sighed gently, "I said, lawyer Chu, you won''t wake up because your first lover has become your little aunt and can''t face the reality?" No one answered her, and she just said something casually. This has become her habit. When filling the medicine today, she has to "talk" with Chu Zixiao. "You are really irresponsible... Your father and mother are so worried every day!" The little nurse said, "for love, abandon family affection... You are irresponsible at first sight." The little nurse raised her chin slightly, and her eyes were full of fantasy "My future husband must find someone who is filial to his parents..." the little nurse looked at Chu Zixiao. "Although a man like you is moving, he is really irresponsible." The little nurse picked up the tray, turned and walked out. At the moment of closing the door, Chu Zixiao''s feeble and unconscious fingers trembled slightly But only once, it restored calm... As if everything was just an illusion. ¡­¡­ The night scene of seaside city should be charming by Los Angeles. As a seaside city, it is also a place with many dark rules... Drunkenness has always been the most real portrayal of the night here. "Chen and I are going out for a while. You go to bed early later, huh?" Shi Shaoqin gently stroked Jian Mo''s long short hair. Jane Mo nodded cleverly and smiled with Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s eyes became deep. He looked at Jian Mo''s eyes and tried to find something, but he couldn''t find anything. Jane Mo sent two men out and slowly closed the door She leaned on the door, and a trace of doubt crossed her eyes, "why... I feel that Gu Beichen will be familiar with Shaoqin?" She murmured, skimmed her mouth and got up to wash without much thought. I don''t know why. She was still very energetic just now. She''s a little tired now. After washing, Jane Mo went to bed. I was about to turn off the bedside lamp when I accidentally knocked down a book on the bedside table. Jane Mo attached herself to pick it up, and a piece of paper fell out... She picked it up and frowned at the figure on it. "QR code?" Jane Mo looked sideways for a long time. She didn''t remember when she put this thing in the book. Or... Is it Shaoqin''s? Jane Mo wondered and wanted to scan her mobile phone. What is this QR code It seems that at this moment, she was surprised that she didn''t seem to have seen the mobile phone? Jane Mo looked at the QR code and frowned suspiciously, "in my impression, how does it seem that there is no mobile phone?" She frowned, looked left and right, and finally turned over and got out of bed. Jane Mo first looked around the bedroom and wondered if she had forgotten But after looking for a while, she didn''t find it. She went to the living room again. "Did it fall under the sofa?" Jane murmured and conveniently put the piece of paper of the QR code on the armrest of the sofa. The man knelt on the ground and began to look for it bit by bit. After looking for Jian Mo''s sofa, she began to look everywhere in the cabinet... But finally, don''t see the shadow of the mobile phone. She didn''t even see a toy mobile phone. Some discouraged Jian Mo sat on the sofa and looked back and forth... Finally, she sighed deeply and tilted her mouth. "Shaoqin won''t confiscate my mobile phone, will he?" Jane murmured, and her previous sleepiness disappeared. She simply went back to her bedroom to get the book and planned to read it for a while, waiting for Shi Shaoqin and them to come back. As she got up, the skirt of her nightdress swept away... While Jane Mo turned and walked to the bedroom, the paper with two-dimensional code fell to the ground. It was early morning when Shi Shaoqin and Gu Beichen came back. When they opened the door, their faces were cold. As soon as they entered the door, their eyes were attracted by Jane Morse sleeping on the sofa. Shi Shaoqin''s face was calm, Gu Beichen was already slightly frowning, and subconsciously wanted to come forward But before the man arrived, Jian Mo slowly opened his eyes, bleary eyed, and looked at Shi Shaoqin in a muffled voice and said, "Shaoqin, you''re back..." Gu Beichen stopped all his movements. At that moment, he only felt that his heart was suffocating and was about to stop beating. Shi Shaoqin came forward and gently beat Jian Mo up. "Why don''t you go back to your bedroom to sleep?" "I''m waiting for you to come back..." Jane Mo snorted, "and then fell asleep." Then he glanced at Shimo and walked to the north corner of the bedroom. Gu Beichen looked down at himself and planned to wait for Shi Shaoqin to come out Suddenly, the eagle''s eyes suddenly stagnated. Gu Beichen looked up at Jian Mo, who had been held into the bedroom, and attached himself... Picked up the QR code paper falling on the corner of the sofa. Chapter 536 Looking at the two-dimensional picture drawn by Gu Beichen, he saw that it was just a two-dimensional picture in his hand This should be the same as the one he saw in his study. It''s a double-layer QR code map. However, it seems that the painting has not been completely finished Slightly invisible light frowned, and Gu Beichen slowly raised his eyes to see... The door of the bedroom is still open. He didn''t worry about what Shi Shaoqin would do to Jian mo. if he did, he wouldn''t wait until now. There was a slight sound. When it was getting closer, Gu Beichen reflexively put the QR code into his pocket. When Shi Shaoqin came out, he happened to see Gu Beichen''s small action. His eyes slightly coagulated and said coldly: "I''m not afraid of what I do to her?" "After fighting all night, aren''t you tired?" Gu Beichen hissed coldly, went to the wine cabinet, took the wine and cup out, poured himself and sipped. Shi Shaoqin calmly came forward and took out the cup for himself. After pouring it, he raised his hand slightly, looked at Gu Beichen and smiled, "Chen, you can''t fight me..." Then, with a smile at the bottom of his eyes, he raised his glass and drank, with a look of enjoyment. But I don''t know whether he enjoys wine or the pleasure of winning Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen had no emotion on his cold face, as if Shi Shaoqin were the air. After all these years, many things are different At the beginning, he was young and frivolous, shrouded in all the auras... But he was strangled by Shi Shaoqin a little bit, which almost made him collapse and couldn''t stand up. Now, he is not who he was. Shi Shaoqin is no longer the same as Shi Shaoqin in those days. "A person who doesn''t know what love is," Gu Beichen said coldly, with a sneer on his thin lips. "He won, but it''s also empty." Then he raised his glass, looked up and poured the wine into his mouth. After the eagle''s eyes crossed Shi Shaoqin coldly, he turned and walked to the bedroom next to Jian mo. Shi Shaoqin''s face changed slightly, but he recovered his calm in an instant. The mobile phone rings after Gu Beichen enters the bedroom. Shi Shaoqin takes it out, looks at the call and picks it up "Qin Shao," came Mosen''s voice on the phone, "Gu Beichen picked up a picture similar to a two-dimensional code left by Jian Mo in the living room." Shi Shaoqin glanced slightly and looked at the direction of Beichen''s bedroom, "what''s the content?" "Just solved it, but I can''t solve it." Morrison replied. Shi Shaoqin slightly hooked a cold radian on his lips, "um" and hung up the phone. If you can''t figure it out, it''s either meaningless or it''s not finished That should be painted before Jane Mo didn''t have "amnesia"? Shi Shaoqin didn''t care. He just put down his glass and went to another bedroom. Living under the same roof, he really expects... Whether silence can control people''s nerves or not. Gu Beichen is here to help him test the effect on Jian mo. it''s the best, isn''t it? Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the bedroom window, with neon lights all over the city, and his narrow eyes narrowed gradually "Chen, weakness... Makes people lose their ability to think." Shi Shaoqin''s words echoed faintly in such a large space, with a strange smell. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen looked for a pen and paper from the room and looked at the double-layer QR code on the small paper. He was stunned and began to decompose. Fortunately, he inadvertently entered Mo''er''s study that night and saw the QR code map Thoughts, slightly stagnant. Gu Beichen looked at the soft light of the desk lamp, and his thoughts gradually pulled away Night, quiet and frightening. No one was tired of rubbing against him and hugging his neck... When Gu Beichen shouted ''husband'' and ''ah Chen'' in your ear, Gu Beichen experienced an unprecedented sense of loneliness. In the study, there are already scattered two-dimensional code pictures with half or all but no content. Gu Beichen is glad that he once held a drawing pen in his hand. With a nervous mood, Gu Beichen swallowed involuntarily when he made the last stroke on the paper. Closed his eyes, Gu Beichen opened it, took his mobile phone and began scanning the QR code "It''s the thing I want to do most in my life!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and then went to sweep another one "Love you..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gathered, and the fundus of his eyes glowed with complex essence. "Loving you is what I want to do most in my life!" Heart, suddenly stinging pain. It took him several nights to break down the double-layer QR code, and the moment he swept out this sentence... What warm moisture blocked his sight, stung his nerves and trembled. Self mockery spread on the handsome face. Gu Beichen slowly withdrew his thoughts, and the two-dimensional code map on the desktop began to decompose If he didn''t finish painting, he not only had to fill up the unfinished parts, but also had to solve what Mo''er wanted to say without error. It''s not easy! Time passes quietly. When the morning light cuts through the thick clouds and scatters the light on the sea, a new day has come. "Dong Dong!" There was a knock at the door. Gu Beichen looked at the picture on the table, sighed and put away the one of Jian mo. after tearing up all the pictures he drew, he got up and opened the door. Jane Mo didn''t expect Gu Beichen to come out like this. When she looked at the strong texture under his nightgown, her face turned red. "That... Breakfast!" Jane Mo hung her eyes and said with a red face. Gu Beichen looked down The belt of the Nightgown was a little loose, and the chest was basically exposed. Gu Beichen simply didn''t care, just slightly hooked his lips and asked, "why did you call me?" "That..." Jian Mo subconsciously looked up and looked up at Gu Beichen''s deep vision, "... Shao, Shaoshi went out." "Oh?" Gu Beichen flashed a sharp light in the depths of the eagle''s eyes, but it disappeared in an instant. Jane Mo''s face is still a little red. "Remember to eat it after you wash." Then she quickly turned around and put it down in the restaurant. However, after taking no two steps, she subconsciously looked back at Gu Beichen. Seeing that he was also looking at her, she was surprised and quickly took back her sight. Fei Chen''s lips gently moved and his eyes moved Mo''er has such a delicate appearance that he has never seen before. Although it doesn''t belong to the normal range, it''s an extra gain to have the opportunity to see it. Thinking, Gu Beichen turned back to the bedroom and walked to the bathroom The smile of the corners of the mouth gradually converged, and the light of the eyes became colder. Is it too obvious that Shi Shaoqin deliberately let him get along with Mo''er alone? With a cold hum, Gu Beichen''s cold face was already cloudy "Qin Shao, won''t Gu Beichen doubt it?" Morson asked with a slight frown. Shi Shaoqin ate his breakfast gracefully, looked at the tide of people coming and going to work outside the restaurant, and said faintly with a slight hook in the corner of his mouth: "people, sometimes the biggest enemy is their own paranoia..." his eyes became deep, "often, they will be complacent!" Chapter 537 "He said it was your favorite..." Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen coming out and hurried to the kitchen to bring out the warm breakfast. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, looked at the simple breakfast on the table and said slowly, "I''m not picky about food..." There are often two kinds of people who come out of the Mo palace. One kind, like Shi Shaoqin, has abnormal requirements for quality. One like him... Some are good to eat. "Ah?" Jane Mo was a little discouraged. She smiled at the corner of her mouth and whispered, "you don''t like it?" Gu Beichen sat down in the chair. "Do you care if I like it or not?" Jane Mo smiled. Her brilliant smile and her short hair, which was a little hard to clean up, were very charming. "Isn''t it what every cook hopes that the cooked food can be liked by the people who eat it?" Asked Jane mo. Gu Beichen smiled, very shallow "Don''t worry, I like what you do!" Gu Beichen opened his mouth quietly, and his eyes were full of doting under tenderness. Jian morwei was stunned. Obviously, he didn''t expect Gu Beichen to answer like this. Slightly embarrassed, Jane Mo only felt her cheeks hot She subconsciously hurriedly lowered her eyes and didn''t dare to look at Beichen''s eyes. I don''t know why, she seems to have nothing to do with Shao Shi, but every time she looks up Gu Beichen''s eyes, why does her heart beat uncontrollably? No, no... she''s just a little nervous about contact with strangers. Well, it must be How could she like someone she just met? Jane Mo''s hand just wanted to clip the steamed stuffed bun suddenly stagnated, and her eyes were even more surprised... How could she have the idea of "like"? Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s actions into his eyes from beginning to end. When she looked at him because of panic, she slowly asked, "Mo''er, do you always have a feeling that you are particularly familiar with me?" "No!" Jane Mo was suddenly very angry. She put down her chopsticks and got up. "How can I be familiar with you?" She didn''t know whether she was angry with herself or Gu Beichen. She quickly turned and went to the kitchen Gu Beichen slowly lay back on the chair. Eagle eyes looked deeply at Jian Mo''s back disappearing at the door of the kitchen and sighed slightly. Drooping his eyes, there was a trace of narrowing in the depths of the eagle''s eyes... Then it became a sharp light. He saw it last night. There was no monitoring in the bedroom Shi Shaoqin only installed surveillance in the living room. Is it because most of Mo''er''s activities are here, or do you want to find something from here? It''s been twenty minutes since Jane Mo came out. She pretended to bring a glass of juice in her hand "I, I suddenly want to drink juice." Jane Mo has some explanations to cover up. Gu Beichen''s thin lips and shallow hooks didn''t pierce her embarrassment. "It''s good for women to drink more juice for their skin and health..." Gu Beichen said. "..." Jane Mo listened and looked at Gu Beichen, his face reddened again. Gu Beichen slightly attached himself, "I found..." he deliberately paused and slowly said the second half of the sentence, "... Mo''er is easy to blush!" "..." Jane Mo continued speechless. "You didn''t......" Gu Beichen shook his head with regret. Sure enough "What was I like before?" Jane Mo asked eagerly. Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo deeply, "can''t you remember at all?" He said lightly, "for the past, even... For me?" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen seriously. After a while, she shook her head somewhat discouraged, "I seem to have lost a lot... But I don''t seem to have. That feeling is very strange..." Jane Mo drank some juice bitterly and touched the corner of her mouth. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo painfully and was dug away by external forces. Must it be very painful for her? She is such a strong person, willing to face all, unwilling to escape! "If I say..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, "... You used to like me very much. Do you believe it?" "Impossible!" Jian Mo hardly thought about it. He immediately raised his eyes and stared at Gu Beichen. "I only like Shaoshi!" Knowing clearly that Jane Mo couldn''t help herself, Gu Beichen was still hurt by such words. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly and said nothing. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen timidly, "did I stab you?" "No..." Gu Beichen smiled softly and looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. "You have always been firm in your feelings, so I will only be happy for you." "You know me well?" Jane Mo frowned. Gu Beichen''s eyebrow tail picked an evil radian, "if I say... I know you better than him, do you believe it?" "Onlookers see clearly?" Jane Mo wondered. Gu Beichen gently smiled at the corners of his mouth, which was very light and illusory, "if you think so..." Jane Mo''s heart is a little heavy. I don''t know why. Mingming Gu Beichen has a soft smile on his face, but she seems to feel that he is unhappy. "I just came to the beach. Can you take me out later?" Gu Beichen asked, "haven''t been here for a long time..." Jane Mo was stunned and slapped her eyes. "I..." she was embarrassed. "I''m not familiar either." "How?" Gu Beichen asked deliberately. Jane Mo also frowned. "Yes? How could it... I should have lived here for a long time." Gu Beichen slightly narrowed his eagle eyes, "however, you are very strange here." Jane Mo was stunned, and her eyes gradually turned restless The feeling of forgetting a lot of things suddenly came up again. "Then just walk around later?" Gu Beichen didn''t let Jane Mo continue to think. Jane nodded and silently began to drink juice. Gu Beichen doesn''t know how Shi Shaoqin controls Jian Mo''s memory, or... He may have been hypnotized. But anyway, Shi Shaoqin left him alone with Mo''er... He must have a different purpose. ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the living room window and looked at Gu Beichen and Jian moping, but there was half a person walking in the middle, and his narrow eyes narrowed slightly. "Qin Shao, Gu Beichen has nothing special except the guidance of consciousness and Jian Mo''s memory." After watching the surveillance upstairs, Mosen said, "Jane Mo seems to be very resistant to him..." he wasn''t sure. Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but looked at the figures of the two people who were drifting away "Jian Mo should still have a memory of Gu Beichen." Shi Shaoqin made a half ring before he opened his mouth. It makes sense that her memory of the last moment will soon be erased. For example... What she was looking for last night, she would forget after sleeping. However, Gu Beichen didn''t forget her existence this morning Does Jian Mo have no memory loss, or is it because she is too obsessed with Gu Beichen? With a hiss, Gu Beichen took back Mei''s hand, which he was going to break. Jane Mo suddenly changed her face, hurried forward and grabbed Gu Beichen''s hand, "you''re a big president and steal flowers from people''s garden..." Gu Beichen''s eyes suddenly gathered, and he looked at Jian Mo in surprise. "What are you talking about?" Chapter 538 "Huh?" Jane Mo frowned and looked up at Gu Beichen with a blank face. Gu Beichen held his breath, "what you just said to me..." You stole a flower, Jane When she gently questioned, she felt a little embarrassed at the corners of her mouth. "Mo''er, do you remember?" Gu Beichen asked cautiously. Jane Mo was more and more confused, "remember what?" She asked subconsciously, and then responded, "are you the president?" She smiled. "Shao Shi told me this morning that you have a big company and are a big president!" Gu Beichen''s heart fell to the bottom of the valley. Since Shi Shaoqin can give them a chance to be alone, how can he not plan ahead? Mo''er has no "amnesia". He has too much hope for such an idea Gu Beichen looked back at the apartment building behind him and looked up slightly... Although he couldn''t see anything, he seemed to confirm that Shi Shaoqin was at the window. The man likes to peep at everything and control everything in his hand He was an exception, so he appeared again this time. Taking back his sight, Gu Beichen came forward and folded a rose, handed it to Jian Mo and said, "send you!" "This is not a personal item..." Jane Mo picked up her eyebrows, but she still took the rose and sniffed it. The aroma smelled, which immediately made her happy. She didn''t delve into such joy. She just thought she smelled the fragrance of flowers. Gu Beichen didn''t say anything. He just took out his pen, looked at Jane Mo, grabbed her hand and wrote a few English letters in her palm. Jane Mo frowned. She should have resisted such an intimate move, but why didn''t she feel embarrassed and abrupt at all? Gu Beichen calmly took the pen and put it into his pocket. Eagle eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply. Jane Mo looked at the letters in her hand and thought. Her eyes suddenly burst into surprise and looked at Gu Beichen, "Hey, how do you know the tattoo on my finger?" Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s left hand, gently stroked the ring on her ring finger, and then raised his hand Jane Mo just instinctively moved her eyes with his actions. When her eyes moved, she seemed to see a light from the blue diamond on the ring face. That light soon disappeared "What was that just now?" Jane Mo asked suspiciously. Gu Beichen just smiled and didn''t explain. Jane Mo turned her hands, but she didn''t shine in the sun for several times... She was a little discouraged. "You know what a tattoo on your finger means, don''t you?" Asked Jane mo. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and slowly said, "if you want to know something, you need to explore it yourself..." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen, frowned and nodded. "Let''s go..." Gu Beichen said with a smile and took the lead in turning to walk on the path. Jane Mo followed her silently. There was always an unspeakable taste in her heart... It was like something was going to break through the obstacles, but she couldn''t break out. The feeling of suffocation and blockage made her feel heavy. "Tell you a story?" Gu Beichen''s footsteps were slow. "Yes!" Jane answered. She looked up at Gu Beichen''s back, but there was loneliness in her strong and great bank, which made her have an impulse... To hold him. "Once upon a time, there was a boy whose birth was doomed to the fate of the favored son of heaven." Gu Beichen opened his mouth in a quiet way, and his steps didn''t stop. "It''s true... He grew up with the wind and water. Until one day..." Gu Beichen stopped, and the eagle''s eyes fell in front, with a dark color across the bottom of his eyes. Jane Mo''s heart was raised. Gu Beichen just said a few words, and her interest was raised It seems that in her memory, she used to stick to it. After a while, seeing that Gu Beichen didn''t go on, Jane Mo asked impatiently, "do you know what happened one day?" "An accident, all the calm was broken..." Gu Beichen took back his eyes and turned to Jian Mo''s eyes. "This boy... Was kidnapped!" "Ah?" Jane Mo opened her mouth slightly in surprise, and her heart suddenly seemed to be strangled with a rope. She began to breathe fast, and even some resisted to know what was going on later However, while resisting, there are people who want to know. "Later... Later?" Jane Mo asked with difficulty. "Later?" Gu Beichen raised his thin lips, "after hearing the story once, there will be no expectation... Tomorrow! If you remember to ask me tomorrow, I''ll tell you what happened later." Jane Mo immediately frowned, and some dissatisfaction left the corners of her mouth. Gu Beichen looked at her such a small action, and the eagle''s eyes were deep... The next moment, he couldn''t help taking Jian Mo into his arms. Jane Mo''s body suddenly froze. She should have pushed it away... But she was happy at the moment she was held. Why? Why did this happen? She doesn''t know him. She and Shao Shi are lovers... Aren''t they? Thinking of Shao Shi, Jian Mo suddenly aroused spirits and pushed Gu Beichen away. Jane morhu looked at Gu Beichen with her mouth and blinked, as if angry and embarrassed "You..." Jane Mo said a word, then bit her teeth and turned back. The wind blows gently. The rose that fell to the ground rolled in a circle, showing the sadness of loneliness. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Jian Mo''s angry back and sighed gently, "Mo''er..." his voice was slow, "remember to ask me tomorrow..." His voice was very light, as if the wind had blown away. He must know how Shi Shaoqin controlled Mo''er. Some conversations this morning, if you guessed correctly... Apart from the memory instilled by Shi Shaoqin, the rest of Mo''er''s memory is only one day. ¡­¡­ Jane Mo was a little absent-minded all day. She painted on the paper with a pen and didn''t know what she was painting. Several times, the nib was broken. Looking at the messy graphics on the paper, Jane Mo angrily photographed the pen on the table... Crumpled the paper into a ball and threw it aside. With a deep sigh, Jian Mo looked at the direction of the door intentionally or unintentionally, and saw no movement. There was an unknown loss in her eyes When she came back, Gu Beichen didn''t come back. It''s evening! Jian Mo looked out of the window. The afterglow of the sunset dyed the sky red. "Qin Shao," Mosen asked, looking at the monitor, "is Jian Mo waiting for you or Gu Beichen?" "What do you think?" Shi Shaoqin smiled shallowly, with deep meaning on his beautiful face. Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin without conjecture. "I also want to know..." Shi Shaoqin lightly drew a cold arc on one side of his mouth. "Tomorrow, will Jian Mo remember the story that Chen didn''t finish today?" Chapter 539 "Just got the news," the slender fingers of the Dragon owl swayed gently with the red wine glass in their hands. "It has been determined that silence can control the nerves, leading to a sense of memory confusion or confusion." Gu Beichen stood in front of the French window with his hands in his pockets, watching the sunset disappear on the other side of the mountain, and his eyes darkened. "I only worry about Mo''er''s body..." Gu Beichen said faintly, "will silence cause Mo''er''s physical injury?" He turned and looked at the Dragon owl sitting on the sofa. "Shi Shaoqin is taking Mo''er as an experiment!" Long Xiao didn''t refute. In fact... According to the situation of Beichen in the past two days, Shi Shaoqin''s purpose has been basically determined. Only those who have firm ideas about something or someone are the best to test whether silence works or not. "The difficulty of silence is not itself," said the Dragon owl calmly, with Obsidian eyes as calm as water, "but what Shi Shaoqin used to mix!" "I know..." Gu Beichen went to the sofa and sat down. He took some water and drank. He looked helpless. Nowadays, you can''t advance quickly. Shi Shaoqin is waiting for him to worry, and then doesn''t break the means Slowly lying on the sofa, Gu Beichen closed his eyes and collected the fatigue from the bottom of his eyes. What should we do... To isolate Mo''er from him and Shi Shaoqin? The Dragon owl glanced lightly at Gu Beichen and said faintly, "you''re proving... Maybe Shi Shaoqin is also proving!" Gu Beichen suddenly opened his eyes and looked at the Dragon owl fiercely "If you believe Jane Mo, maybe it''s easier to fall in love again than to recall her memory." The Dragon owl calmly put down his wine glass, put down his overlapping legs, got up and looked down at Gu Beichen. "I''ll go to London tomorrow, and everyone here will stay for you." "And warmth?" Gu Beichen is light. "No..." the Dragon owl looked a little dignified. "Beicen hasn''t been in good health recently." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and didn''t say anything After experiencing Jian Mo and Shen Chu, he is the most qualified to express feelings, but he also knows the most... Some things are lost by those in the game. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked upstairs subconsciously I saw the warm man standing on the stairs in a loose Linen Skirt. I couldn''t see anything on my face. I just looked at the Dragon owl with a pair of eyes and didn''t move. "I''ll go too." Gu Beichen got up, took back his sight and motioned with the Dragon owl. The Dragon owl looked back and took it back indifferently, "HMM." Gu Beichen didn''t say anything more. He turned and left Longxiao''s villa in Haibin city. Back to the scenery of lakes and mountains, it''s already past 8 pm Jian Mo is having dinner with Shi Shaoqin. When she sees Gu Beichen coming back, their expressions are obviously different. Shi Shaoqin smiled at the good play. Jian Mo was stunned at first, and then his face was slightly gloomy "Have you eaten? I''ll get you some dishes and chopsticks!" Jane Mo said and got up. "OK..." Gu Beichen spoiled his lips. Jane Mo was just dim, as if she had found the light in an instant, and hurried to the kitchen to get the dishes and chopsticks. Gu Beichen sat down opposite Shi Shaoqin. They looked at each other and sneered at each other. Jian Mo had already come out. The dining table for three people doesn''t seem very abrupt However, Shi Shaoqin found that Jian Mo was obviously in a much happier mood after Gu Beichen came back. Even... Ate half a bowl of rice. "Here!" Jane Mo handed the soup to Gu Beichen opposite. Gu Beichen naturally took over, and there was nothing wrong. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, looking at Jian Mo''s action, and his narrow eyes narrowed slightly. Gu Beichen''s thin lips were frivolous in a wanton radian, and he didn''t break Jian Mo''s behavior... Just the eagle''s eyes looked at Shi Shaoqin slightly. There are some things that exist in the bones, not external forces to erase the memory. After a meal, Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin ate in a turbulent undercurrent, but Jian Mo suddenly didn''t feel it. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles, Spencer. Watching Su Junli and Jian Jie sit on the piano bench, playing the piano leisurely... Li Yunze stood at the door of the piano teacher and didn''t go in to disturb them. Su Jun felt his sight and looked at the door. He saw Li Yunze and nodded slightly. His fingers cooperated with Jian Jie without stopping. When the last note fell, Su Junli smiled at Jian Jie and rubbed his head. "Let''s have a rest, huh?" "OK." Jian Jie nodded with a smile and looked at the door, "Uncle Li!" Li Yunze stepped forward, took out his mobile phone, opened the memo and handed it to Jian Jie. "Daddy''s?" Jian Jie looked at the content and looked at Li Yunze suspiciously. "Yes." Li Yunze answered, "let yourself solve..." "OK..." Jane Jie''s eyes lit up in an instant. She quickly found a pen and paper and copied down the string of numbers in the memo. "Chen Shao just put Xiaojie here, so he''s not afraid..." Su Jun stood in the corridor with his hands in his pockets, looked at the night light under the drizzle outside through the window, and was a little dignified. Li Yunze smiled. "No matter how strict the prevention is, there are times of negligence... All we can do is try our best." Su Jun Li frowned slightly. There was discontent on his gentle face, but there was nothing to do. Jian Jie and Gu Beichen look alike. In fact... In such a closed school, they are really the best. Plus Xiao Jie will pay attention to himself and don''t let people outside see him But he was not at ease, but he did not dare to come here more for fear of causing some unnecessary trouble. "It''s better to prepare for the rain now." Li Yunze shrugged. Shi Shaoqin doesn''t know the existence of Jian Jie now. To a large extent, he doesn''t think about it... Conceited people are often arrogant. The most important thing is that no one thought that Beichen would not put Xiaojie around from the beginning "Chu Zixiao hasn''t shown any signs of improvement yet?" Su Junli asked. Li Yunze shook his head. "If a vegetable wants to wake up, on the one hand, it depends on his will to survive, on the other hand... It depends on the nostalgia of the people he cares about in the world." Jane Mo is gone. Chu Zixiao has little chance to wake up. ¡­¡­ Jane Mo had dinner and fell asleep after reading for a while. This time, Gu Beichen took the lead in holding Jian Mo asleep Shi Shaoqin just raised his eyebrows and smiled. Between his eyebrows and eyes, there was a mockery under "help yourself". Gu Beichen ignored Shi Shaoqin, just took Jian Mo into the bedroom and gently put it on the bed Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo with eagle eyes. Finally, he attached himself with a heavy heart and gently kissed her on the corner of her lips. The familiar touch made Gu Beichen feel that his lower abdomen was suddenly tightened, and the current instantly attacked all his nerves. He tried to restrain his impulse to deepen the kiss, but painfully closed his eyes "Teng" opened his eyes, and Gu Beichen suddenly got up for fear that he would be unable to restrain himself. Cover Jane Mo with a quilt and she is about to turn around and leave Suddenly, Gu Beichen stopped. The eagle''s eyes slanted slightly and hung down... His sight fell on a piece of paper exposed from the bottom of the bed. Attached, pick it up. Above is a pair of corner blocks of QR code. The ink pupil was slightly cold in an instant Is this the unfinished corner? Chapter 540 Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo who was asleep. Now she is controlled by drugs and her thoughts are out of control Well, there''s only one possibility. She drew this QR code before Put in his pocket, Gu Beichen calmly turned and walked out. Shi Shaoqin was pouring wine at the small bar. When he saw him coming out, he glanced sideways and smiled softly but coldly at the corners of his mouth. Gu Beichen walked over, picked up a cup, took a shallow SIP and put down the cup... The eagle''s eyes fell slightly on the scarlet liquor inside. Shi Shaoqin just looked at Gu Beichen indifferently and didn''t speak. The smile on the corner of his mouth gradually rose "You''ve been in contact with Mo''er for a long time, haven''t you?" It''s a question, but it''s certain. Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at Shi Shaoqin. The eagle''s eyes were full of sharp light, with a sneer written coldly. "Why do you think so?" Shi Shaoqin asked with a light smile. "Mo''er seems to call you ''Shao Shi''..." Gu Beichen said slowly. Shi Shaoqin''s smile deepened, "indeed." "If I remember correctly," Gu Beichen''s cold face was covered with a layer of haze. "Once, Mo''er had a customer, also called Shaoshi!" That time, Mo''er just had a problem. He accidentally saw her phone call... Mo''er said it was a customer. He didn''t think much at that time, even... He didn''t think much when he heard Mo''er calling Shi Shaoqin yesterday. Just now, but for a moment... He just reflected the name. "Chen, you are too careless." Shi Shaoqin spoke slowly, his voice was low and intoxicating, "conceited people often regret in the end." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, "I hope... This sentence will not come true to you." When the words fell, Gu Beichen glanced at Shi Shaoqin''s slightly changed face, turned indifferently and walked to his bedroom. After taking a bath, Gu Beichen began to piece together the two QR codes. Even with the experience of unlocking the last double-layer QR code diagram, it still takes time to unlock this one When the two decomposed QR codes were all drawn, it was already more than 4 a.m. Gu Beichen took his mobile phone and scanned the QR code. At the moment before the information came out, he forgot to breathe. The sound of "Di" came, and Gu Beichen''s eyes suddenly gathered. "Ah Chen, please believe that I love you until the sea withers and the rocks crumble!" Gu Beichen''s heart shrank suddenly, as if he had been severely pinched. He held his breath to scan the second QR code The sound of "Di" came. It was in the neutral position of refreshing. Gu Beichen''s breath became heavy "All external forces will never shake my love for you. External gossip is not the reason for our separation. I hope you are as firm as me!" It looks like two love words, which makes Gu Beichen''s vision gradually become deeper The eagle''s eyes narrowed gradually! If it''s just love, why does Mo''er separate QR codes? In addition, if he hadn''t studied such a double-layer QR code in advance and had certain painting skills... I''m afraid it''s difficult to decompose it. In this case, you have to use another piece of paper to say... What does it represent? Gu Beichen carefully disposed of the two-dimensional code paper, lay back on the bed and closed his eyes Tired eyes are a little astringent and painful, but the brain keeps running. I don''t know how long it took, the sound of even breathing came After all, Gu Beichen couldn''t stand the fatigue of his body and gradually fell asleep. In the dream, the rolling waves beat the fine and soft beach, and the dark day seemed to be coming down "Here you are!" Gu Beichen is covered with blood and is locked in a dog cage. The place is not very spacious, and the smell is even worse. It makes people vomit. "Can''t eat..." Gu Beichen said with a weak voice. "Only by living can you fight Shaoqin!" Gu Beichen ignored the speaker and just closed his eyes. After several days of fierce fighting with several wolf dogs, he seemed to be one of them Gu Beichen''s body trembled slightly, trampling his self-esteem on the ground like that, humble to the dust... He had never experienced. "I advise you to eat the best..." the hand that goes to the bread is slender, but you can see the unhealthy pallor in the dark. Gu Beichen looked sideways at the man delivering the bread... Because there was no light and the other party deliberately hung his head, he could see nothing but the arc of his chin. "For your own good, take it!" Gu Beichen''s voice has been splitting. "It''s all right. Shaoqin won''t do anything to me." He started, "eat, there''s nothing left." Gu Beichen closed his eyes He was so hungry and willful that he ate what they sent in... Before he became infected with the poison. As if to see his mind, the man took back the bread and sighed, "you had a small dose that time, so although you worked hard, you still survived..." After a pause, he sighed softly, "but have you ever thought... As long as Shaoqin wants to torture you, you can''t resist at all." Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes, and there was some confusion under his eyes. He glanced at the man, although he knew he couldn''t see anything clearly, "who the hell are you? Pervert?" The last words he said were gnashing his teeth. In a short month, he saw too many people lose their humanity because they want to survive But so what? In the end, it was just a toy under a gang of hungry men! "No one is born abnormal." The man youyou said and handed the bread to Gu Beichen again, "eat, I''ll find a chance to send you something to eat..." Seeing Gu Beichen didn''t move, the man sighed helplessly, "if I told you that as long as you can leave the Mo palace within three months, Shaoqin won''t embarrass you... Do you believe it?" "What do you mean?" Gu Beichen sat up excitedly. Because he was too strong, he tore the wound on his body, and his face was distorted by the pain The man frowned slightly, and a trace of hesitation crossed his eyes. Should we get him some anti-inflammatory drugs? If this goes on... Will the wound become inflamed? "I can''t say too much. If you''re willing to believe me... I''ll help you." "Who are you?" Gu Beichen gritted his teeth. "I want to believe you, but you don''t even give me the most basic information... How can I believe you?" The man raised his eyes slightly. In the dark, he saw a pair of eyes full of fighting spirit like a fierce leopard. He didn''t speak, just handed the bread forward again. Gu Beichen didn''t hesitate this time. After taking it... He bit as hard as he did. The man got up, and while Gu Beichen was slightly frowning, he went out and said, "my name is... Shi juechi!" Chapter 541 Dawn broke through the clouds, penetrated the curtains and shone in the bedroom Gu Beichen''s thin lips moved slightly, his eyebrows wrinkled, his eyelashes trembled, and slowly opened his eyes. Suddenly got up, and there was a chill behind him. I don''t know why he suddenly dreamed that he was caught in the Mo palace. It was just a dream. Now he can still be scared in a cold sweat Gu Beichen sat on the bed with eagle eyes. "Stone Jue Chi..." Gu Beichen murmured that the man never appeared again except after giving him the bread. Later, under the torture of Shi Shaoqin, he didn''t think about this person anymore. Why do you suddenly dream of this person? Gu Beichen got out of bed to wash, but in a moment, the sound of a shower came from the bathroom. The rustling water splashed on the strong skin from top to bottom... For a moment, it rose in the bathroom, disturbing people''s heat. The mirror was gradually blurred by the heat. Gu Beichen looked sideways On the body with clear texture, I can''t see any trace left in the ink palace. Yunze once naively thought that if the traces on his body were erased, perhaps the scars in his heart would gradually fade away... However, no! Suddenly Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes suddenly gathered. As soon as he turned off the shower, he casually grabbed a bath towel and surrounded his lower body. He hurriedly opened the door of the bathroom and went out At the same time, the bedroom door was pushed open from the outside. Two people habitually enter the bedroom one by one. Almost at the same time, they see each other stop. Jian Mo stared at Gu Beichen, who was almost naked, and widened his eyes in an instant. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with a calm face at that time, and there was no sense of embarrassment at all. "You, you, you..." Jane Mo was short of breath, and her face turned red. However, she blushed, but didn''t turn around. She just stared at Gu Beichen''s chest "Why do I feel so familiar with such scenes?" Jane Mo was puzzled. Gradually, the blush on her face disappeared. Gu Beichen didn''t disturb Jian Mo''s thoughts, but just stood there and let her watch "I must be crazy..." Jane murmured. What''s the purpose of coming in? As if she didn''t remember, she turned around and went out of the bedroom. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Seeing that Jane Mo closed the door, he simply didn''t call her. He untied the bath towel and planned to change his clothes. A light Bang came, and Gu Beichen looked back reflexively "I''m here to call you to eat early..." Jane Mo''s words suddenly stopped. She looked at Gu Beichen and stared bigger than just now. Gu Beichen sighed secretly and planned to take the bath towel thrown aside and cover it first Although, for Jane Mo, this is a little superfluous. Jane Mo''s face is as red as a tomato "I, you... I..." Jian Mo said incoherently, and could clearly see Gu Beichen jumping with excitement. Gu Beichen looked down at the guy who had begun to covet, sighed and wrapped it with a bath towel "Personal suggestion..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s shy and bewildered appearance and slowly said, "you should turn around, then go out and close the door!" "Ah?" Jane Mo was dazed and seemed to react suddenly, "Oh!" In response to the sound, Jane Mo has hurriedly turned and gone out With a bang, the door was closed heavily. Gu Beichen sighed deeply and his eyes deepened. The body is the most real reaction of his heart. He wants Mo''er... To hold her and whisper in her ear. Finally... In the early morning, listen to her soft voice and soft cry, "good morning, husband!" After Gu Beichen changed his clothes indifferently, he took his mobile phone and called out the QR code scanned yesterday "Ah Chen, please believe that I love you until the sea withers and the rocks crumble!" "All external forces will never shake my love for you. External gossip is not the reason for our separation. I hope you are as firm as me!" I don''t know if he thinks more, or at this time, any point is magnified by him However, for no reason, why did you dream of Shi juechi? Gu Beichen looked at the QR code over and over and said two words When I first saw it yesterday, I didn''t notice... But now I think more and see the problem. Mo''er''s character is straight. If he can express his meaning in one sentence, he will never say it in two sentences! If one of them is so, it means that she may just accentuate Unfortunately, both messages are complicated. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed in an instant and opened again. Call out the text message interface, the slender fingers quickly across the screen, and a text message is sent out A "buzzing" vibration sounded on the table, breaking the stalemate. Li Jinxi ''Teng'' looked up, looked at Chen Yu opposite fiercely, and said with gnashing teeth: "Oh, I''ve come to greet you so early... Why, do you want me to let out the bed directly and give it to you and the junior?" Chen Yu sighed helplessly, "I said, I have nothing to do with the star..." "Hum!" Li Jinxi slapped his chopsticks on the table and said, "it''s okay? It''s okay. Can you reveal your intimate kissing photos?" "Lying trough, that''s dislocation." Chen Yu was a little angry. "Li Jinxi, how many times do you want me to explain before you can believe me?" "How can I believe that you are stubborn?" Li Jinxi snorted coldly. Chen Yu has a headache. "You are also free in Minggui circle. Reporters love to catch rumors. You don''t know." "Who knows?" Li Jinxi sniffed coldly, "I''m not sure that some people are drunk and can do anything... No, text messages are coming." If women mess around, it''s not over This is Chen Yu''s greatest understanding of women. He simply pushed his mobile phone directly to Li Jinxi, "well, I won''t watch it. Do you think it''s ok? If it''s a woman, I''ll eat my mobile phone..." "If you don''t eat, you won''t be surnamed Chen! Hum..." Li Jinxi grabbed his mobile phone, clenched his teeth and stared at Chen, and cut open the text message Chen Yu helped the forehead, "Li Jinxi, labor and capital together with you, the family..." "Do Gu Beichen know?" Li Jinxi said unhappily. Chen Yu looked up, stunned at first, got up and took the mobile phone in Li Jinxi''s hand. He glanced at her as if to say: I''ll say it''s not a woman Chen Yu looked at the text message sent by Gu Beichen, and with the spirit of distrusting Li Jinxi, he went back to the past: I don''t know! Just after replying, he was surprised and hurriedly entered another one: should you ask shi Jue Chi?! Gu Beichen looked at the returned name, and his eyes gradually became deep and bottomless If Mo''er really left her a message, if this "stone Jue Chi" was the person who sent him bread Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and sent a text message to Xiao Jing: start with Jian Mo''s "death". I want to know who stole the beam and changed the column for all the information from all channels in Los Angeles! Chapter 542 "Never less, you''d better give up!" A small, big body sat on the sofa and immediately fell into a pit. Shi juechi looked at the sample, "is Carney better?" "It''s estimated that I''ll have to lie down for ten and a half days..." the sample was a little angry. "Qin Shao still saved you face, or... Kani will die if he doesn''t die." Shi juechi sighed and said nothing. He just went to the terrace and rubbed the center of his eyebrows, "I don''t know how Jane Mo is..." "Didn''t you say you were dead?" The sample voice is like Hong Zhong''s asking. "How possible?" Shi Jue Chi Leng sniffed, "I''ve always wondered that Shaoqin''s means shouldn''t play like this... These days, calm down, I always think Shaoqin drugged Jian Mo for experiment." "It''s none of your business anyway..." the little sample said, "never less. You helped Gu Beichen before, but now you help Jian mo... You don''t want to be brothers with Qin Shao, do you?" Shi juechi looked back and saw the simple sample. His gentle face was completely dignified. I''m worried that Jane will find out if she is pregnant She was so sick before. If it continues like that, can she hide? With a slight sigh, Shi juechi turned and walked out "Never less, what are you going to do?" Xiaoxiang got up with a puzzled face. Shi Juxi kept walking, "go and see Kani." "Oh..." the sample heard it and groaned with some dissatisfaction. "Carney is injured. Siyue is with him every day these days... I think the boy is happy." Shi juechi looked at the dissatisfied sample and smiled, "why don''t you accompany me to find Jian Mo?" "Huh?" The sample didn''t respond. Shi juechi''s eyes crossed cunningly, "in that way, you can also enjoy Carney''s treatment." After listening to the sample, he quickly waved his hand, "forget it... Carney is lucky. If he can''t point to me, Qin Shao will kill me. When it''s cheaper, Carney, I don''t want it." Shi Juxi''s smile gradually converged, and his heart was momentarily heavy. Shaoqin this time is a warning. If he participates again, what will happen? I really don''t know Shi juechi gradually stopped and looked at the endless corridor ahead. Murals and decorations full of classical charm pressed down the surrounding atmosphere. How many years? Sometimes he always feels that he has forgotten the time to see the boy He is like a beam of light stabbed into the darkness. He keeps falling down, but he always stands up when you think he compromises Not only Shaoqin, but even he yearned for it at that time. A bread, he wants to know him But in the end? Not only didn''t help him, but even almost killed him! Shi juechi sighed heavily and slowly opened his mouth: "I won''t act rashly..." At least, he won''t move if he''s not sure he can help Gu Beichen and Jian Mo this time. The figure of Shi juechi was pulled out by the light. The sample scratched his head and didn''t understand Shi juechi''s behavior... But he was relieved soon. Anyway, he didn''t understand. After arriving at Carney''s room, Xiao Siyue just finished giving him medicine. It seems that the whole popularity is much better. "Never less..." Xiao Siyue saluted respectfully, with no too many expressions on his face and some coldness. Shi juechi nodded slightly and cared about Kani before walking aside with Xiao Siyue. "Got it?" Shi Jue Chi is light. Xiao Siyue''s face was calm. "Do you want to hear less gossip?" Shi Juxi nodded. "Qin Shao didn''t think about that, and Jian Mo didn''t seem to have anything wrong..." Xiao Siyue said calmly, "at least, there''s nothing wrong that Qin Shao paid attention to!" Shi Jue Chi''s eyes were cold, "are you sure?" Xiao Siyue replied with no expression on his face: "gossip!" "..." Shi Juxi twitched at the corners of his mouth and said nothing. If Shaoqin doesn''t find anything, does it mean that Jane Mo''s pregnancy vomiting phenomenon is gone? Is it because the nerves are controlled and forgotten, or because of drugs? One by one, the problems slipped in the sea of Shi Jue Chi''s brain, but none of them could be confirmed However, if Jianmo doesn''t have pregnancy vomiting now, as long as she can leave Shaoqin before her stomach shows up... Does all that mean there is still a chance? ¡­¡­ After the "embarrassing" event in the morning, Jane Mo is a little hiding from Gu Beichen. Shi Shaoqin looked at Gu Beichen with a faint smile from beginning to end. "Mo''er''s memory will be forgotten after a sleep..." Gu Beichen said faintly when Jian Mo went to the kitchen to make dessert. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were slightly deep, "maybe." Gu Beichen frowned faintly, "if you just want to test the medicine, come to me... Isn''t it better?" "I want to try another person..." Shi Shaoqin picked his eyebrow. "You tried so much, and finally formed antibodies." Gu Beichen had no color on his cold, carved face. "Shaoqin, you will never understand why people... Want to live." "Indeed..." Shi Shaoqin nodded, "because I control people''s lives, don''t I?" "Even after all these years, you are still empty." Gu Beichen got up with a cold hum and wanted to leave. "What are you doing?" Shi Shaoqin immediately frowned and his face was sullen. But I don''t know whether it''s because Gu Beichen wants to leave or because of his ridicule Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but went to change his shoes. "Are you going out?" Some soft waxy voices came. Gu Beichen looked back and saw Jian Mo holding the cut fruit in his hand, his mouth, staring at him with stubborn eyes Such eyes, he is familiar with, but almost forgotten. "There are some things to deal with..." Gu Beichen''s voice was soft, different from his indifference to Shi Shaoqin just now. Shi Shaoqin''s gorgeous face was shrouded in a thin haze. "I just cut your favorite fruit..." Jane Mo''s men consciously pinched the plate. Gu Beichen looked down at the colored fruits on the plate and then raised them, "shall I take you out for a walk?" Jian Mo subconsciously looked at Shi Shaoqin and asked at the bottom of her eyes. "No!" Shi Shaoqin directly interrupted Jian Mo''s inquiry. Jane Mo shook her head at Gu Beichen angrily. "When you come back, I''ll cut it for you..." she said, turning around a little lost. Where did Gu Beichen see Jian Mo like this? When he realized that he had reacted, he had changed his shoes again. "It''s OK to go after eating. It''s not particularly anxious." Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed gradually, and there was a cold light at the bottom of his eyes It is in sharp contrast to the joy blooming at the bottom of Jane Mo''s eyes at the moment. "Good, good!" Jian Mo smiled and took the fruit fork for Gu Beichen, then looked at Shi Shaoqin, "you too..." she paused, looked at Shi Shaoqin wrinkling her face, couldn''t help frowning and asked, "Shaoshi, you seem unhappy?" Chapter 543 Gu Beichen glanced at Shi Shaoqin, with a touch of satire in his eyes. "Yes?" Shi Shaoqin''s smile was frozen in the corners of his mouth, with a touch of evil spirit. Jane Mo''s black pupil was a little confused, as if she also noticed that the surrounding space gradually became thin Gu Beichen took back his sight indifferently, sat down in a chair and tastefully ate the fruit made by Jian Mo himself. In the first two years of marriage, most of them went to bed, and it was a luxury to eat together occasionally Later, because the second uncle came back, he was very busy and had few opportunities to accompany her. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, who saw Shi Shaoqin coming and sitting down, and his eyes were deeply guilty Mo''er is a self-improvement and self-reliance woman. She clearly hopes to be spoiled like an umbrella, but most of the time she calmly suppresses her small temper. What he hoped to take her to do, so far he hasn''t done anything Guilt has spread all emotions. Gu Beichen doesn''t want to cover it up or hide it. Shi Shaoqin sat opposite Gu Beichen and took all his emotions into his eyes. The bottom of his eyes was dark. "Aren''t you very principled?" Shi Shaoqin sneered, "I once suffered a lot because of this principle!" Gu Beichen converged his sight and looked at Shi Shaoqin with indifference under alienation. "It''s just for people..." he picked an evil radian at the end of his eyebrow, "to her... My principle has always been no principle!" Gu Beichen ignored Shi Shaoqin and changed his face again. He slightly hooked one corner of his lips and showed a sarcastic smile. "Shaoqin, haven''t seen you for many years... I find you have one more hobby now." As he spoke, his slender fingers held a cherry and raised it. The eagle raised his eyes slightly, glanced at the slight change of his face, and said slowly with his thin lips: "I like to find abuse..." Before Shi Shaoqin could react to his words, his hand holding cherry had been handed to Jian mo. Jane Mo was also waiting for Gu Beichen. When she heard "looking for abuse", cherry came to her lips... She subconsciously opened her mouth. Gu Beichen, with a gentle and spoiled smile in his mouth, handed the cherry in... At this moment, the bottom of his eyes has turned into a river of spring water, drowning people at any time! Sweet! Jane Mo bit her mouth, and her mouth full of cherry juice was as sweet as honey, from the taste buds to the heart. She gently fanned her lower eyes, her thick eyelashes flickered, and there was joy overflowing from the bottom of her heart Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen like this. It was love and greed that could not be concealed. Shi Shaoqin''s face has completely changed. I''m afraid that even the queen of the film can''t perform here... Well, it can only show that medicine can control people''s nerves. But Jane Mo forgot everything, but she didn''t forget her love for Gu Beichen alone? The sound of "quack quack" was filled with forbearance. "A person who hasn''t experienced ''love''..." the long voice came slowly, "how can you understand?" Gu Beichen tilted his head and looked at Shi Shaoqin with eagle eyes. "Remember what you said and don''t break the rules during the game." Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly and collected the crazy dark color overflowing from the fundus of his eyes. Gu Beichen calmly looked back and said to Jian Mo, "the fruit you cut is delicious... I''ll bring you supper when I get back from work, huh?" "Midnight snack?" Jane Mo frowned, "didn''t you come back very late?" "Maybe..." Gu Beichen smiled and got up immediately. This time, he didn''t stop, and didn''t even hesitate because of the loss of Jane Mo''s eyes. The memory of a fish is only seven seconds, but it never forgets to swim to find happiness. Even if Mo''er''s memory is only one day, then... What is deep in his bones will always be reflected slowly. Mo''er... I''ll wait for you! But don''t let me wait too long The sound of "Ding" crossed, and the elevator door opened slowly on the first floor. Outside the elevator, Mosen carried a large bag of things and walked in inertia at the moment the door opened Seeing Gu Beichen inside, he stopped. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly and stepped out Stop at Morson''s side, "what would you do if I killed Shi Shaoqin one day?" Then he slightly tilted his head, "or..." his thin lips raised an evil arc, "... I''ll tell him your secret and let him solve you first, huh?" Mohsen''s calm face changed. Because no one came in and out of the elevator, it closed with the sound of ''crash'' Murderous spirit filled the surroundings. The air condenses and makes it impossible to breathe. Gu Beichen just coldly converged his sight, and Mo Tong looked ahead, "I won''t embarrass you... Mosen, you know what I want." Without staying, Gu Beichen took his pocket with one hand and walked away with his slender legs. Morson stood in place, secretly clenched his gums, and his eyes were slightly cold... But he turned around and restored his usual indifference. Press the elevator again, and Mosen walked in indifferently... At the moment when the elevator door was closed, he blocked Gu Beichen''s gone back. ¡­¡­ Chen Xuanqiao crossed his legs, took a glass of wine in his hand, took a sip... A look of enjoyment. When he heard footsteps coming, he looked sideways. "Chen Shao, who has never been late, didn''t expect to be half an hour late." "I think you''re enjoying it..." Gu Beichen glanced at the bottle of red wine on the table. "That''s..." Chen Xuan sat upright. "You don''t know. I''m going crazy by Li Jinxi recently." "Gossip?" Chen Xuan looked helpless. "I''m in the media. It''s normal for me to get in touch with stars... She grabs some wind and grass, and the shit will enlarge." "I can''t stand it. It''s better to leave!" Gu Beichen looked indifferent. Chen Xuan was stunned at first, and then looked unhappy. "Do you have a friend like you? Advise divorce!" "We have never been friends..." Gu Beichen still said calmly. Chen Xuan choked back at his words. Gu Beichen was right... They are not really friends. It can only be said that people who have to be on the same line under the binding of interests. "Did Shi juechi find out?" Gu Beichen asked after pouring himself a glass of red wine. "All the transactions in the Mo palace have been closed recently. Grandpa has nothing of value." When it comes to business, Chen Xuan put away his evil ruffian temper. "If you hadn''t mentioned it, I couldn''t remember this man..." Chen Xuan frowned. "I overheard grandpa talking about it before. Shi Shaoqin has a brother named Shi juechi. But who is Shi juechi and what he looks like... No one has ever seen him." Gu Beichen slowly lay back on the sofa He has seen it, but he doesn''t know what it looks like. "By the way..." Chen Xuan suddenly thought of something. "There is a rumor that Shi juechi and Shi Shaoqin are twins... If so, they should be very similar!" Chapter 544 "That should be very similar..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes became deep and bottomless, and his words made people anxious slowly, "but... They are really twins?" Chen Xuan shrugged, "who knows..." He sighed lightly, "the ink palace can stand for so many years without falling down, which naturally has the value of its existence. There are many twists and turns among countries, and the party members of all countries are very greedy, but it is also clear that if the ink palace falls down, how much damage will their interests..." After a pause, Chen Xuan shook his glass with some evil spirit, "in this world, there are no permanent friends, only permanent interests. You know this very well..." He picked the tail of his eyebrow and continued with an evil smile, "naturally, we fight fiercely, but we all have a consensus, that is to protect the ink palace." Because the weapons of the Mo Palace are always top-notch, and their poison products are of the highest purity and the most reasonable price This is also the main reason why the Mo palace can stand! "Beichen, you''ve been too concerned about the ink palace lately..." Chen Xuan gradually converged his smile and his eyes became sharp. "Why don''t I guess..." his eyes stared at Gu Beichen and became deep, "maybe Jian Mo didn''t die... Just, you... Or she, were targeted by the ink palace!" Gu Beichen''s cold face was completely indifferent. Chen Xuan wanted to see something from his expression, but he couldn''t see anything. "Or... It''s Shi Shaoqin''s eye!" Chen Xuan''s eyes became sharp. Gu Beichen slowly raised the cup, drank and said indifferently, "don''t speculate too much. It''s bad for you and Jinxi." Speaking of Li Jinxi, Chen Xuan immediately changed his face. "Besides threatening me with this, there''s no him..." Chen Xuan was dissatisfied and restrained his anger. Gu Beichen just slightly hooked the lower lip corner and looked at the original place Due to the identity of the Dragon owl, it can be said that taking him away from the Mo Palace last time has violated the taboo in the Jianghu. This is also the main reason why he doesn''t want to find boss long to participate this time. After all, the real identity of the Dragon boss involves too much. After confirming Shi juechi, Gu Beichen didn''t stay with Chen xuanduo. Taking Mo''er away is one thing, but the emperor has so many people waiting for him to eat and live... He can''t be irresponsible because of love. Moreover, only a strong pillar can make him fight against Shi Shaoqin unscrupulously. Gu Beichen went directly to Longxiao''s villa, where there are the most perfect equipment for him to use. The mobile phone vibrated when he just stepped into the villa. Gu Beichen looked at the call, pushed open the study door and picked it up at the same time, "huh?" "Chen Shao, I found..." Xiao Jing''s voice was a little urgent. "The information has been stuffed into your mailbox." After a pause, he said again, "but I''m not completely sure..." If Mo''er left her a message that Shi juechi took her away, then in order to avoid him or Shi Shaoqin''s tracking, Shi juechi could not be blatant. "Go on, I want to know where their destination is in the end?" Gu Beichen said with his eyes slightly heavy. "It has been continued, but it will take some time..." Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned on his sword eyebrow, and then Shu unfolded, "don''t come in a hurry." Now it''s patience. He has no spare time to start all over again Mo''er must have left him some useful information before he lost his memory... He, firmly believe! After hanging up Xiao Jing''s phone, Gu Beichen turned on the video recorder, and it was evening after the chief executives waiting online explained the main things. Gu Beichen came out of his study. The sunset penetrated the huge French window and projected into the villa, with a warm but lonely atmosphere. Standing there in a warm white dress, plated with a halo by the sunset, like a Greek goddess. "Do you have dinner here?" Warm turned around and looked at Gu Beichen''s faint mouth. "No." Gu Beichen kept walking downstairs. "Boss long is not here. Generally, you don''t live here?" At the same time, he stopped. Warm smile, very alienated but polite smile, "here you are, see if you want to stay for dinner." Gu Beichen hasn''t seen warmth many times, but he always thinks that this woman is a woman with a story... And her story doesn''t belong to the Dragon owl! But this sentence... Is from the perspective of the Dragon owl. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and did not continue to explore. Everyone''s emotional world has its own track, and others can''t interfere. ¡­¡­ Jian Mo took the last soup to the table and subconsciously looked at the door No movement! She turned around and went to the study. "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." Jian Mo opened the door, "Shao Shi, have dinner..." Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo, and her face was obviously depressed. "Unhappy?" Shi Shaoqin came forward and wanted to take Jian Mo into his arms at the same time. Jian Mo took a step back at the moment when his hand was raised She didn''t know why she did this. After she did it, she was obviously surprised and looked at Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin''s face changed slightly, but it was fleeting. "Let''s go and eat..." Shi Shaoqin pressed down the impulse to strangle Jian Mo, and the beautiful handsome face had been replaced by the usual smile. Jane morhu''s mouth drooped her eyes, nodded and turned silently At the same time, the hand has been gripped into the warm palm. Jane Mo''s first reaction was to pull it out, but just wanted to move, she held back... But there was a look of resistance in the bottom of her eyes, which couldn''t be covered up. Shi Shaoqin had a panoramic view of Jian Mo''s expression. He took her to the restaurant and asked calmly, "Mo''er, are you sure you like me?" "I''m sure!" Jane Mo answered firmly. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, and there was a cold smile on his mouth. According to these two days, Jane Mo''s behavior is really disturbed by silence So, is the medicine not enough, or is she too obsessed with Gu Beichen? A meal, eat extremely depressed. Jian Mo always secretly glances at the direction of the door uncontrollably. Because of repeated losses, she becomes more and more unhappy... Even ignores Shi Shaoqin and keeps looking at her. "I''m full..." Jane Mo said, putting down the dishes and chopsticks. "I''ll get the juice." Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo, got up and went to the kitchen. At that moment, his eyes were completely murderous However, such murderous spirit was hidden in an instant. Jane Mo looked at the kiwi fruit in her hand and couldn''t react for a long time. She didn''t react when she just took it... She doesn''t like kiwi fruit juice most. How could she subconsciously take kiwi fruit? Jane Mo''s lips Also, what she clearly likes is Shao Shi. Why does she suddenly resist his touch? Chapter 545 One question after another exploded in Jian Mo''s mind Whether it''s the urgency of Gu Beichen''s return, or the resistance to Shaoshi, or even... Subconsciously take things you don''t like! As soon as Jane Mo threw away the kiwi fruit in her hand, she heard a muffled bang. Kiwi fruit rolled on the glass platform for several times before it stopped. Jian Mo seemed to be frightened. People pushed back a few steps and stopped after being blocked by the cabinet. However, her eyes still fell on the kiwi fruit... Her eyes widened as if it were a terrible thing. There was a noise from the kitchen door. Jane Mo was surprised and suddenly stood up straight. When the door was opened, Shi Shaoqin narrowed his narrow eyes and asked softly, "what''s the matter?" "It''s all right..." Jane Mo shook her head hurriedly. "I was a little dizzy just now, so... I leaned against it for a while." Shi Shaoqin frowned, "let me see..." the words fell, and the man had come forward. Jian Mo tried to avoid Shi Shaoqin''s touch. She wanted to prove that... She didn''t have any idea about Gu Beichen. However, when Shi Shaoqin''s hand touched her forehead, her heart overflowed with strong resistance. Secretly gritting his teeth, Jian Mo tried to resist the move of trying to push Shi Shaoqin away. "Now, just for a moment..." Jane Mo''s voice was a little flustered and hurriedly bypassed the topic. "Do you also want to drink juice? I''ll squeeze it for you!" When Shi Shaoqin''s eyes moved gently, Jian Mo had retreated and went to the glazed platform. He slowly tilted his head and looked at Jian mo. there was an evil smell on his handsome face. Youyou said, "no, I''ll come in and see you... Why didn''t I go out for a long time." Jane moo raised her lower lip and held an orange in her hand. She didn''t move "I have something to go out later. Can you be at home alone?" Shi Shaoqin asked, looking at Jian Mo''s delicate voice. Jane Mo hurried back, "it doesn''t matter to me... Wait, I''ll go to bed first." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered and walked forward. When Jian Mo didn''t respond, he grabbed her waist and pulled it to himself. Jian Mo''s heart suddenly vibrated and raised her eyes to the sight of Shang Shi Shaoqin. "Mo''er, you love me..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was very slow, "... Right?" Jian Mo gently fanned his eyes, and his thoughts instantly settled in the deepest part of Shi Shaoqin''s eyes She nodded subconsciously, "Hmm!" Shi Shaoqin slowly attached himself with a deep fundus of his eyes... When his lips fell on Jian Mo''s forehead, he obviously felt the people in his arms tremble slightly. If there is a smile like nothing on the corner of the mouth, it rises slightly and disappears at the moment of getting up. "I''ll be back soon..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was soft enough to spoil. Jane murmured at the corners of her mouth and nodded. After Shi Shaoqin smiled at her, he let her go and turned to leave However, at the moment of turning around, the smile at the corners of my mouth was covered with cold... The fundus of my eyes was even turbid. ¡­¡­ Shi juechi was sitting on the reef by the sea, while the sample was making a fire with fruit trees, planning to roast lamb legs. "Absolutely little, do you still want to leave the Mo palace?" The sample voice is like Hong Zhong''s asking. Shi Jue Chi glanced at him and sighed, "I can''t rest assured that Jian Mo......" With a gentle word, it was almost scattered by the rolling waves. At that moment, Shi juechi''s heart seemed to be caught, which made him uncomfortable. Taking out his mobile phone, Shi Juxi played with it for a while, and finally dialed it out "Huh?" Shi Shaoqin''s faint voice came, with a little alienation under anger. Shi Jue Chi sighed, then slowly opened his mouth: "Shaoqin, I want to see Jian mo." Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes slightly and suddenly opened them when they became a gap "Are you begging me?" Shi Shaoqin held back his anger. "Yes!" Shi Juxi answered firmly. Shi Shaoqin gritted his teeth. "Shi juechi, do you have the ability to say it again?" Shi juechi frowned slightly and the corners of his mouth moved, but he didn''t say it again "In fact, what can I do when I see you?" Shi Juxi laughed at himself, "I''m afraid... She''s me now and doesn''t know me?" "Are you so convinced that she''s still alive?" Shi Shaoqin sneered. Shi Jue Chi looked deeply at the rolling sea, "didn''t you deliberately let Siyue release the news?" With a slight sigh, he continued, "I just want to see her... Even if she doesn''t know." Shi Shaoqin tilted his head and looked at the passage of the street view Just as he passed a car in the opposite direction, he said slowly, "I''ll arrange it." Without giving Shi juechi a chance to speak, Shi Shaoqin has already hung up. Morson looked at Shi Shaoqin from the rearview mirror and then drove seriously. "What did Chen do all afternoon?" Shi Shaoqin asked. "After meeting with Chen Xuan, I went to Longxiao''s villa." Morrison answered calmly. Shi Shaoqin put cold hiss on the corner of his mouth and didn''t ask any more Gu mohuai and Jian Heng are not Chen''s opponents. Should he find him something extra to do? Save it, he can deal with Jane foam with ease! ¡­¡­ When Gu Beichen returned to the apartment, it was already more than nine o''clock in the evening. As soon as he entered the door, he saw Jian Mo holding a book in a daze. Jane Mo heard the voice and looked at Gu Beichen. The bottom of her eyes immediately overflowed with surprise, "are you back?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen gently answered and changed his shoes. Such a feeling always makes him have an illusion... As if he were in Los Angeles. "Late night..." Gu Beichen put the food box on the tea table, "gift!" He handed a book to Jian Mo, with a thin lip and a wicked smile. Jane Mo didn''t expect Gu Beichen''s gift to be a book. She took it curiously. Seeing that it was design, she was immediately happy, "how do you know I like design?" At the same time, she raised her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil deeply coagulates Jian mo... Sure enough, Shi Shaoqin can''t change her deep preferences! Should he be glad that he and design are the most important in Mo''er''s heart? The lines on his cold face gradually eased and softened. Gu Beichen said in a low and magnetic voice, "I know many things about you... Your likes and dislikes!" Jane Mo was surprised at the bottom of her eyes, "how could it?" "Why not?" Gu Beichen sat down beside Jian Mo and stared at her deeply, not letting her have a chance to avoid. Jane Mo was staring at by Gu Beichen, but she didn''t hate such a stare. Even, what are you looking forward to? "I, I don''t know..." Jane Mo was a little flustered. Gu Beichen''s face was slightly sad, but it was fleeting. Jian Mo seemed to feel Gu Beichen''s sadness, pricked his lower lip, looked at him and asked, "Gu Beichen, have I ever loved you?" Chapter 546 "What do you think?" Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo closely. Jane Mo shook her head and was in some distress. "I don''t know..." she squeezed the design book in her hand. "I don''t know why today. It seems that I can''t figure out many problems." Jane Mo bit her lower lip and lowered her eyes, "but when I want to think about it, I don''t know what to ask..." Her sight was raised subconsciously because of panic. She looked at Gu Beichen. For a while, she looked down again. "It feels like you and I should have known each other for a long time..." Jian Mo''s voice has become tangled, "but I''m Shaoshi''s girlfriend..." "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen resisted the impulse to hold Jian Mo, but said leisurely, "you think so today, tomorrow... But you may not still think so!" He clearly knows that no matter now, he tries to recall Mo''er''s memory. However, he will return to the starting point as soon as dawn comes But he still hopes! However, such extravagant hopes are so vulnerable in reality. From knowing that Zixiao gave Mo''er medicine, from Mo''er''s health for no reason... He never thought that the final development was that Mo''er would be confused. The most important thing is that these drugs were given by Shi Shaoqin He knows too much about the drugs that control people in Mo palace! Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen, as if she didn''t understand his words "Why do you think I won''t think so tomorrow?" Jane Mo frowned. "It''s not like sleeping and forgetting." Gu Beichen had a touch of bitterness in the bottom of his eyes. He sighed and didn''t say it deeply. He just took the lunch box out of the bag. "I''ll bring you a snack. Let''s eat first?" Jian Mo looked reflexively at the food box opened by Gu Beichen. When she saw that it was mushroom lean meat porridge, she frowned slightly. "You also said you know what I like..." there was obviously some loss and dissatisfaction in her voice, "but I don''t like this porridge." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes went deep and became soft when he looked at Jian Mo, "Mo''er, have you ever thought about why you subconsciously resist many things?" Jian Mo looks at Gu Beichen Gu Beichen deeply coagulated Jian Mo and asked slowly, "but will inexplicably be attracted again?" Such a rhetorical question suddenly exploded in Jane Mo''s mind. The kiwi fruit after dinner came up like a nightmare. With Gu Beichen''s words, her face changed. "I, I''m tired..." Jane Mo said in a panic and got up, as if to escape something, and hurried to the bedroom. Gu Beichen looked at it quietly. As Jane Mo''s back was getting farther away, the ink pupil became deeper and deeper And the fundus of the eyes that can not hide the sadness, also overflowed. Jane Mo was at the door of the bedroom and suddenly stopped Her hand still clung to the doorknob and gradually used force... Because of too much force, her knuckles began to turn white. Leaning to the side, Jian Mo looked in the direction of the living room However, at the moment, they can''t see each other from their perspective. However, no one took back his sight, which was like penetrating the barrier. His sight had been entangled together. I don''t know how long it took. When Jane Mo thought she had been hit by someone and didn''t seem to move at all, there was a gentle but dignified sound of footsteps Gu Beichen was standing where his sight could reach when his sight was inching. His steps stopped only slightly, and then he stepped forward again. Jane Mo''s heart began to tremble. As Gu Beichen approached, her eyes began to stare big. Gu Beichen stood in front of Jian Mo and swallowed involuntarily Hand, unconsciously loosen the door handle and step back. Jian Mo looks at Gu Beichen timidly. How flustered she was just now, how nervous she was when Gu Beichen approached Such tension is different from that brought to her by Shao Shi. Gu Beichen didn''t seem to want Jian Mo to escape. Even, there was a touch of crazy and bloodthirsty persecution in the bottom of his eyes. He pressed down the position of his heart and felt the pain pouring out, so he approached Jian Mo again step by step. Jian Mo kept retreating back until she reached the bottom of the corridor and was stopped by the cabinet with artworks "You, what are you doing?" Jane asked with a corner of her mouth. Gu Beichen stopped when he was almost close to Jian mo. he slightly attached himself Jane Mo can only fall back. Her body has no pressure because of the support of the cabinet. However, Gu Beichen doesn''t intend to stop at all The action is not fast, approaching bit by bit, until Jian Mo''s body can no longer fall, he is still close Each other''s breathing gradually became clear, and even the hot breath was spread on the face, crisp and numb, with an ambiguous love bath. Jane Mo''s face turned red. She didn''t know why she had such an ambiguous idea... But when Gu Beichen''s breath was intertwined with her own, her heart was about to break through her chest. "Gu... Gu Beichen..." Jian Mo swallowed secretly and forgot to push him away. "You, what are you doing?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s shy appearance, and the depths of the eagle''s eyes were already hot He didn''t want to do anything. He just wanted to force her to face it. Even for a moment, he would forget it in the morning. But At this moment, seeing her chattering and trembling lips, his body had given a strong bath hope signal. Hot unwilling to move at the bottom, there is the most direct response to this person Whether it was the two years that I thought I didn''t love, or the four and a half years of silence... Or the short two months of late spring and early summer! There, always jump and firm for this woman "If I say, I want to kiss you..." Gu Beichen''s voice is low, hoarse and charming. He looks at Jian Mo''s face more and more red, and his eyes stare bigger, "... Will you expect?" With Gu Beichen''s words, the heat spread on Jane Mo''s face, and her heart beat more violently. Knowing that the medicine pushed him away for the first time, however, there was some expectation in my mind She must be crazy! And this madness... Continues. "I, you... I..." Jane Mo was incoherent, and her contradictory heart made her almost cry. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and felt heartache in the bottom of his eyes. She couldn''t resist the subconscious longing for him. But because Shi Shaoqin gave her medicine, her nerves resisted The separation of heart and soul tore her and tortured him as well! Press down slightly, and the gap between their faces shall not exceed 10 cm at most However, the action of a moment, the thin lips have coincided with the delicate soft lips that don''t know what to say Chapter 547 At that moment, Jane Mo''s body seemed to be electrified. She widened her eyes, forgot her heartbeat and even forgot to breathe. "You should close your eyes now..." Gu Beichen''s low voice came magnetically, with a little banter. "Just feel it carefully." Jane Mo mechanically closed her eyes, and Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes became deep and bottomless because of her tenderness Lip, stick it again. Two people kiss countless times. Each time the love goes deep, or even just picking beans from each other under boredom, they may make each other forget themselves. Gu Beichen''s attack on the city strategy pool is invading Jian Mo''s thoughts. In this way, he tells her how much he misses her In this way, she cleaned her confused thinking. Jane Mo''s breath began to grow heavy. She didn''t know whether she couldn''t breathe or whether she was intoxicated by Gu Beichen''s kiss. Just know, this feeling is so familiar, familiar with her body is hot The hum of "um" overflowed the overlapping lips. Jian Mo''s men consciously wanted to pick Gu Beichen''s clothes. It was so natural. Gu Beichen tried his best to bear the idea of his body. He couldn''t talk to Jian Mo under such circumstances He loves her, not just physically. He told Mo''er that it was a spiritual collision. The kiss continues. The tangled tongue is like two waving ribbons, which can''t be separated from each other, but will be closer and closer! Jian Mo''s breathing is getting heavier and heavier. The hand who wants to pick Gu Beichen''s clothes is also busy Unfortunately, Gu Beichen''s "non cooperation" only slightly pulled her suit coat, and there was nothing left to shake. Just when Jane Mo was about to think she was suffocating and fainting, Gu Beichen left her lips reluctantly. Eagle eyes looked at Jian Mo breathing deeply. Gu Beichen''s voice became more and more hoarse and said, "Mo''er, has Shaoqin ever touched you so intimately? Do you feel the same to him and me?" Jane Mo''s head is still in a funny state, but her black pupil looks at Gu Beichen vaguely Gu Beichen''s thin lips slightly drew a smile. That smile, however, reached the fundus of his eyes in an instant and fainted in the depths of his ink pupil. "Mo''er, maybe you will forget this throbbing tomorrow..." Gu Beichen smiled, but his voice was hard to hide his sadness. "But as long as you can remember a little every day, it''s good." Wait until I find the message you left me, wait for me Gu Beichen got up and pulled Jian Mo up. He gazed deeply at Jian Mo in his eyes, and his thin lips moved back and forth. At last, he turned around without saying anything. He has a general understanding of the house. That corner just now is a place that can''t be monitored and photographed in the living room Racing against time seems to be what he and Shi Shaoqin have been doing since they "knew" each other. ¡­¡­ The sound of the heart rate instrument "drop, drop, drop" came out mechanically, and there was a dead silence under the soft light. Li Yunze opened the door of the ward and checked the data on the instrument before going to see Chu Zixiao. As always, he is still "sleeping". When footsteps came, Li Yunze looked back and saw a little nurse come in with a medical tray in her hand "Eh, Li Shao?" The little nurse slapped her eyes. "Haven''t you gone back yet?" "Yes." Li Yunze looked at the little nurse. She was specially taking care of Chu Zixiao. "After you''re busy, get off work early..." For Chu Zixiao now, most of the time, it can be said that it only needs the instrument monitoring at the nurse station. "Well, good." The little nurse smiled and nodded. Seeing that Li Yunze was leaving, she hurried to say, "goodbye, Li Shao." Li Yunze nodded slightly and turned away. At the moment of closing the door of the ward, he vaguely heard a voice inside "So many people care about you. Do you mean to sleep all the time? I''ve never seen such a lazy person like you... Hum! I only care about my rest, regardless of the people who care about you, and so many people outside who need you... Hey, Chu Zixiao, do you want to consider waking up?" Li Yunze looked at the little nurse who added medicine to the drops from the visiting window. His eyes were deep, and he turned and left. It''s too hard to wake up a vegetable without the will to survive. Whether the little nurse can arouse Zixiao''s consciousness or not, it''s ok if someone speaks... A miracle may happen? ¡­¡­ After taking a bath, Jian Mo sat on the bed, curled up and retreated, with her arms around her and her chin on her knees... In this way, her eyes were empty and looked at the front. The taste of Gu Beichen seemed to remain on his lips, and his words were all in his mind. I thought my head was knotted at that time, but the strange thing is... She remembered every word he said clearly. Even if Shao Shi hugs, she has the impulse to push away... However, for Gu Beichen''s intimate behavior, she only wants to learn more greedily. Why? The person she clearly loves is Shao Shi, not Gu Beichen! She and Gu Beichen have only met for a few days. How can they feel like this? The heart beat violently, and Jane Mo''s mind was completely the deep kiss just now The breathing became rapid, and even the body began to heat up... It was as if there was something in the body to break out of the cocoon and think of being relieved. However... Such urgency becomes empty after powerlessness. Jane Mo buried her face. She held herself tightly, even her lips tightly Why, why does Gu Beichen mean that she will forget today''s thoughts tomorrow? Why did she expect so much from Gu Beichen, or even yearn for something? Did she forget Gu Beichen in the things she didn''t remember? Has she ever loved Gu Beichen? One question after another surged into her mind. Jane Mo felt that her head was about to explode She hated the feeling that she didn''t know anything. She tried to think about it, but she found that her memory was empty, only a few people, and even nothing substantial It seems that she doesn''t even remember what she ate yesterday? Jane looked up in horror. "How could it be so?" She murmured, her eyes fixed on the front, and her pupils gradually spread out because of surprise Night, as if to devour all things. Jane Mo''s breathing became heavy and frightened because of silence. In such a quiet space, suddenly footsteps are getting closer and closer Jane Mo suddenly aroused her spirits and hurried back to her senses. She didn''t even think about it, so she turned off the light, pulled over the quilt and lay down. Almost as Jian Mo lay down, the door was gently pushed open The light from the outside came in. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo, who was sleeping quietly, and withdrew. As he walked to the living room, Shi Shaoqin took out his mobile phone and dialed Mosen. "Transfer the monitoring in the evening and see if Gu Beichen and Jian Mo are different?" Chapter 548 "Yes!" Mosen answered and heard a hang up tone from his mobile phone. He put down his cell phone, called up the monitoring of Shi Shaoqin after he left at night, and looked at it one by one Shi Shaoqin went to the small bar, poured himself a glass of wine and went to the balcony. Looking at the lights in Binhai City, Shi Shaoqin smiled coldly. Night, more and more heavy. In this way, Shi Shaoqin watched the lights on the tall building gradually go out, and then there were fewer and fewer lights The cell phone didn''t ring until the building he was staring at had almost no lights. Looked at the call and picked up "Qin Shao, nothing unusual at night." Mosen looked at the monitoring screen, which was fixed on a screen in which Gu Beichen and Jian Mo stared at each other. "Gu Beichen came back with porridge and a book. Jian Mo seemed to like the book very much and didn''t eat porridge." Shi Shaoqin tilted his head and looked at the food box still on the tea table. He put a sneer on the corner of his mouth, "HMM." After answering, Shi Shaoqin hung up. When Mosen heard the hang up tone, he slowly put down his mobile phone, and his vision still fell on the video device "You know what I want..." Gu Beichen''s words sounded in his ears. The skin at the corner of Mosen''s mouth twitched. He picked up the remote control and turned off the video device. Turn around and Mosen walks to the bedroom. Hands, gradually clench The sound of "Gaga" dislocation of bone joints echoed in the quiet space with treachery and coldness. Morson''s vision is well aware of the cold, and there is resentment overflow in the bottom of his eyes. ¡­¡­ The vibration of the "buzzing" mobile phone suddenly woke up Gu Beichen. The eagle''s eyes "brush" opened, and there was no drowsiness at the bottom of his eyes. He took his cell phone and looked at the call. He saw that Xiao Jing opened the call and put it in his ear when he picked it up "Chen Shao, there is a breakthrough." Xiao Jing''s voice was obviously a little excited, "I found that two men may be the one who took the young lady..." "Where is the location tracked?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, emitting two dangerous lights. Xiao Jing hurriedly said, "the destination is not clear, but there is a scope." He swallowed and then said, "if there''s no accident, we''ll find it tomorrow." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and rubbed his temple with his other hand to relieve the pain there. "Don''t act rashly after you find your destination." "I understand..." Xiao Jing answered. After Gu Beichen explained a few more words, he hung up the phone. Xu was too tired. After returning to his room at that time, he thought about things and fell asleep At this moment, I woke up without any sleep. Look at the time, it''s one o''clock in the morning Gu Beichen got up, picked up his nightgown, wrapped it up and went out. The light in the living room was on, and the eagle''s eyes scanned around like a detector, and finally landed on the balcony. Shi Shaoqin sat leisurely on the chair and smiled at him. Gu Beichen indifferently takes back his sight, goes to the kitchen, pours out a glass of water for himself, and walks to the bedroom "Chen!" Shi Shaoqin frowned. Gu Beichen stopped, "I have nothing to talk about with you, and there''s nothing to say..." then he lifted his step forward again. Shi Shaoqin stood up, "really?" Gu Beichen frowned again and looked at Shi Shaoqin. "You set the rules of the game. Your repetition will only make me think... Your powerlessness will become your powerlessness!" With a brush, Shi Shaoqin''s face changed. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep, and one side of his thin lips aroused a smile. However, the smile was stiff in the corners of his mouth and never spread, "Shaoqin, shall we make another bet?" "What qualifications do you have to offer?" Shi Shaoqin sneered and didn''t answer the question. Gu Beichen smiled. This time, it obviously spread a lot, "it''s also..." He glanced at Shi Shaoqin and walked back to the bedroom with an evil smile. Shi Shaoqin stood there, frowning slightly... How did he feel that he suddenly couldn''t understand Chen? The night is getting longer. But even so, the dawn comes when it should come. When the dawn opens the prelude to a new day, Jane Mo is making breakfast in the kitchen "Call Chen out for breakfast." Shi Shaoqin said when he saw that Jian Mo had brought out all the breakfast. "Huh?" Jane Mo was puzzled. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. A few seconds later, he said, "we have guests in our house, Gu Beichen!" "Oh, yes!" Jane Mo suddenly thought of it and turned to ask Gu Beichen to get up. Just as the hand wanted to push the door, the door was opened from the inside. Jane Mo was surprised and asked reflexively, "why don''t you need to shout today?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were suddenly deep, and the ink pupil was tightly condensed with Jane foam, with a trace of doubt in the bottom of his eyes. "Eat, eat breakfast..." Jane Mo said with a strange expression and hurried to the living room. "If you don''t want to be known by him, every word, every expression... Even every action should be managed in place." The voice rang out from the voice. Jian Mo suddenly stopped and looked back at Gu Beichen. How did he know she remembered yesterday? Jane Mo''s heart beat fast. She wanted to confirm Gu Beichen''s words, so... She didn''t sleep last night. Then, today clearly remember all the things that happened yesterday Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s surprise at the bottom of his eyes and didn''t say anything more. He just calmly copied his pocket with one hand and raised his feet, "let''s go." Jian Mo went to the living room with Gu Beichen indifferently. As usual, for the breakfast of the three, Jian Mo has always been the silent one But, as usual, there is a little accident, the discovery of Gu Beichen. From time to time, I don''t know whether she is nervous or peeking at Beigu today. Shi Shaoqin was not surprised by her behavior, but... It was obvious that there was a darkness in the depths of her eyes. "I''ll walk around later. Do you want to join me?" Gu Beichen hands Jian Mo a piece of bread coated with jam. Jane moped her lower lip and took the bread. "Thank you." Paused, "I''m not very familiar with the neighborhood..." "It''s all right. Just walk in the community." "Yes!" Jane Mo stopped, nodded hurriedly, and a smile overflowed from the corners of her mouth. Gu Beichen took a deep look at her and then looked at Shi Shaoqin with some pride. Shi Shaoqin''s face was slightly heavy. "I''ll take you to buy clothes later. I''m afraid I don''t have time to accompany him." "Ah?" Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin in surprise, and her lips moved. She looked at Bei Chen softly, then lowered her eyes and answered angrily. Jian Mo compares Gu Beichen''s and Shi Shaoqin''s attitudes, and immediately sees the superior. Shi Shaoqin''s gorgeous face was already shrouded in a layer of haze. He looked at Jian Mo and asked slowly, "don''t you want to go with me?" Chapter 549 Jane Mo''s heart was startled, "but... There are many new clothes in the cabinet, and they haven''t torn the tag!" She said timidly, and her voice was a little stuffy Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo and tried to resist him. However, he seemed to be afraid of his anger, and Jun''s face was a little darker. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo lightly. If she put it in the past, there should be no problem for her. However, now her memory is like white paper... Even if she may not have slept last night and retain her memory for another day. "Let''s go together..." Gu Beichen converged on Jian Mo''s eyes and looked at Shi Shaoqin, "just in time, I didn''t bring clothes this time." Shi Shaoqin "brushed" and looked at Gu Beichen. "Just in time, I''m not too familiar with the seaside..." Gu Beichen said, his face not red and gasping. "Really?" Shi Shaoqin sniffed coldly, "just, don''t you feel uncomfortable when I take Mo''er shopping?" Gu Beichen gently hooked one side of his thin lip, "how can it?" The low voice is light, eh, after the voice, the corner of the mouth picked a vicious radian, "isn''t... Shouldn''t you be uncomfortable?" Qin Zi''s eyes narrowed slightly at any time, as if he would tear the two young generals. Gu Beichen was indifferent on his face. Even the expression on his face didn''t give him more points Shi Shaoqin''s metamorphosis belongs to metamorphosis. During the game, he still has "credit". Although he doesn''t know whether there is a bottom line for this credit "Shao Shi?" Jian Mo gently shouted, looked at him and Gu Beichen, as if he had done wrong, fanned his eyelashes and hung his eyes. Shi Shaoqin instantly converged on the overflowing cold breath, looked coldly at Gu Beichen and said, "let''s go together." When three people appeared in the mall, they should have attracted attention After all, two men with different styles, but equally excellent and handsome, with a woman who is also superior in appearance, are destined to turn back two thousand percent! Unfortunately Jane Mo looked around for a week. Let alone looking back, she couldn''t even see a personal film. "Is the mall closed today?" Jane Mo frowned and looked around. The angle was wrong. She could only see that the stores were open, but she couldn''t see the guests. "Private......" Gu Beichen opened his mouth faintly, and his voice was magnetic. Jane Mo didn''t react and looked at "huh?" Gu Beichen slightly attached himself to the past, and the eagle''s eyes asked deeply: "no way, some people don''t want others to know or see, I can only directly charter the venue..." Gu Beichen''s words were slow and meaningful, but at the end, he looked at Shi Shaoqin. Jane Mo''s eyebrows twisted and looked at Beichen. It was for Shaoshi... But why did she think he was for her? Moreover, why is such a scene so familiar? Jian morhu lowered the corner of his mouth, slightly moved his steps, opened a little distance from Gu Beichen, and finally looked at Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin scratched a sinister light in the depths of his eyes, indifferently pulled Jian Mo''s hand and walked to the elevator The moment he turned around, he looked at Beichen with pride. Gu Beichen''s thin lips were hanging with a smile. The eagle''s eyes were as deep as the sea. With a cold sight, they fell on the hand of Shi Shaoqin and Jian mo The "buzzing" of the mobile phone rang at the right time. Gu Beichen took out his eyes and answered the call. "Chen Shao, the destination has been found." Xiao Jing''s voice is a little strange. "Huh?" Gu Beichen came forward with Shi Shaoqin at the same time. Xiao Jing looked at the small manor hidden in the depths of the woods. If he didn''t come in, he couldn''t see such a place to live in just from the outside. "There is no one inside..." Xiao Jing said. "I sent someone to look nearby. There is a mountain road behind the house and a river after it." "Are you sure you''ve lived in it?" Gu Beichen didn''t shy away from Shi Shaoqin and Jian mo. "Yes, but it won''t be long." "Just follow my instructions..." Gu Beichen explained. Xiao Jing slightly twisted his eyebrows and wanted to say something, but his mouth just moved back and forth. Finally, he just answered, "yes!" After Gu Beichen hung up the phone, Xiao Jingcai slowly put down his hand, and his face was a little dignified. "Brother Jing, what is chenshao looking for?" The person on one side scratched his head and looked at Xiao Jing with a puzzled face. Xiao Jing glanced at him and shrugged, "Chen Shao doesn''t know." "Ah?" "Ah, what... Find it!" Xiao Jing sighed softly, "no matter whether there is such a thing or not, if you turn the house carefully from inside to outside, you can always find something." "Oh..." Xiao Jing was a little dignified and took the lead in lifting his feet. Now he is not afraid to turn things out, but he is afraid that he can''t turn things out Chen Shao is now with Shi Shaoqin. The most important thing is the wrong judgment and the mistake under suspicion. Otherwise, it will only make his future thinking not firm enough and constantly veto himself. "Be careful. Show me anything suspicious." Xiao Jing watched everyone explain. "I see, brother Jing." Xiao Xiao nodded and signaled everyone to start action This side nervously searched every corner. In the Feilong department store in Haibin City, Jane Mo looked at her clothes absently. "This... Huh?" Gu Beichen took a water blue shoulder chiffon skirt in his hand and handed it to Jian mo. "This one!" At the right time, Shi Shaoqin also handed over a skirt, which was similar to Gu Beichen''s style, but white. Jian Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. She looked at Gu Beichen''s hand and Shi Shaoqin''s hand. She looked embarrassed. "In fact, the young lady looks so beautiful and has good skin... White with purity, water blue with water spirit, all very good." The shopping guide felt that the atmosphere was wrong and hurried to say. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes'' brush ''shot at the shopping guide, and his eyes were sharp. The shopping guide was scared and stepped back, "I, I just... Just suggest..." "Don''t buy..." Jane Mo looked at the shopping guide and was suddenly angry. She ignored Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin, turned around and walked outside... This time, she got off the elevator directly. "Mo''er?" Shi Shaoqin shouted. Jane Mo didn''t stop. After leaving the mall, she went to the roadside to stop the car... She didn''t want to pay attention to the two men she would choose from the first store. "Miss, where can I go?" When the driver saw that Jane Mo didn''t make a sound after getting on the bus, he looked in the rearview mirror and asked. Jane Mo was stunned. "I don''t know..." she said, and her face turned red. The driver couldn''t laugh or cry. "You don''t know where I''m going to take you?" Jane moo looked at the two men standing outside, clenched her teeth, opened the door and got out of the car Gu Beichen was obviously relaxed at the moment when Jian Mo got off, but there was still a trace of tension. "I..." Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin and said, "I don''t know where my home is?" Chapter 550 Looking at Jian Mo''s distressed appearance, Shi Shaoqin''s eyes had a strange look, fleeting. He walked forward, gently took Jian Mo''s hand and said, "it''s me. I shouldn''t make you angry..." Jian Mo pressed down the impulse to pull out, whether it was in the mall just now or now... I don''t know why. In front of Gu Beichen and Shaoshi, she always felt like she was cheating. However, it is clear that she and Shao Shi are together Isn''t it strange that she has such a feeling for Gu Beichen? Even, the kiss with Gu Beichen yesterday not only didn''t make her feel guilty about Shao Shi, but it seemed as if her body had been longing for it for a long time. "How about not buying it?" Jane Mo drooped her eyes and was afraid that her thoughts would be seen by Shaoshi. "OK..." Shi Shaoqin answered softly, and his voice was soft and intoxicating. "Go back?" Jane Mo just nodded and didn''t speak. Shi Shaoqin glanced at Gu Beichen, turned around and took Jian Mo to the parking lot When passing by Gu Beichen, Jian Mo subconsciously looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s eyes gathered slightly, and then turned indifferently and walked to the parking lot... The look changed at that moment, which made Jane Mo wonder if she was wrong. "Eh... Isn''t that Gu Beichen?" Not far away, there was a woman wearing a black narrow ol dress, hanging her neck curiously. Warm and the same uniform as the woman, she looked sideways and said, "can you recognize the back?" "Of course, it''s my husband!" The woman didn''t blush at all, and her answer was natural. Warm eyes drooped and smiled. Without saying anything, he took the lead in moving forward However, after taking two steps, I looked at Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo with eyes and hands in doubt. Who is this man? Gu Beichen can tolerate other men. Such intimate contact with Jian mo "Warm, what do you think?" The woman grabbed the warmth and motioned next to her. The warm subconscious glanced and said calmly: "I''m thinking about how close you and Gu Beichen are, how to know people from your back, and I''ll learn later..." "Ha ha, I can''t learn that." "Well, that''s your husband!" Warm fun. "Necessary..." Warm smiled and looked at the direction of the entrance to the parking lot of Feilong department store... There was no figure of Gu Beichen and them there. There is a complex emotion floating through her eyes. Gu Beichen is a brother she knows. The Dragon owl cares about very much... They all say that birds of a feather flock together. The Dragon owl''s persistence towards feelings... Is it the same as Gu Beichen? Warm back their eyes, the female staff on one side is still ''chirping'' and saying, "well, you''re not afraid that the supervisor will see your mouth broken and say you again..." Their voices disappeared in the Yadong bank next to Feilong department store. At the same time, a car came out of the parking lot In the narrow space inside the car, the atmosphere is a little strange. Morson looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror, and subconsciously looked at the car immediately behind from the reversing mirror. I don''t know how long this situation will last "Mo''er, don''t you find that there is a problem with your attitude towards me since Gu Beichen came?" Shi Shaoqin''s bland words echoed gently and pulled you. Mo Sen frowned slightly and looked at Shi Shaoqin from the rearview mirror. There was a trace of panic at the bottom of Jane Mo''s eyes, but she quickly covered up, "what do you mean?" She asked a little confused. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, and there was a cold light at the bottom of his eyes... But it was fleeting, and he couldn''t catch it at all. "Nothing..." Shi Shaoqin said faintly, with a soft spoiled smile on the corners of his mouth. Jane Mo suddenly felt a little fluffy in her heart, and her eyes overflowed with fear. She quickly lowered her eyes and didn''t dare to see Shi Shaoqin again. Shi Shaoqin took Jian Mo''s hand, put it between his palms and gently rubbed it, "Mo''er..." "Huh?" Jane Mo answered uneasily. Shi Shaoqin''s smile spread slightly, but there was no temperature at all. "Don''t think about leaving me..." Shi Shaoqin sighed lightly. "I can tolerate many things from you, but I can''t tolerate you leaving me, okay?" The voice of light eh clearly sounds like a trace of humble helplessness. However, falling in Jian Mo''s heart, it was like a sledgehammer, which made her heart tremble. "How could I leave you?" Jian Mo hurriedly said, "I, i... I..." Shi Shaoqin looked at her like this, gently took her into his arms, stroked her back with his big palm, smiled and said, "look at your hurry..." His voice was very light and slow. "I''m just afraid you''ll think Gu Beichen is better than me and will unconsciously be attracted by him. After all... He''s so excellent." Jane Mo just pricked her lips and breathed a little quickly "Shao Shi, i..." Jian Mo tried to explain something, but in the end, he didn''t explain anything, but said stuffy, "I won''t leave you." Why... When I say this sentence, I feel so sad in my heart? Why is that? At the right time, the ''buzzing'' sound of mobile phone vibration came, interrupting Jane Mo''s thoughts. Mohsen pressed the Bluetooth headset, listened to the report inside, frowned slightly and said coldly, "I know." After hanging up, he looked at Shi Shaoqin in the rearview mirror and didn''t say anything. After sending Jian Mo back, Shi Shaoqin saw that she was in bad spirits and rubbed her hair, "I''m going out..." Jane Mo nodded obediently, "I''m a little sleepy, too. Go to sleep first." He said, "do you... Come back for lunch?" "Probably not." "Oh..." Jane murmured a little disappointed, "I know." "I''ll come back for dinner in the evening." Shi Shaoqin smiled. "I won''t go out at night. Will you accompany me?" Jane Mo''s eyes lit up and nodded quickly. Shi Shaoqin looked at the starlight on Jian Mo''s black eyes, looked slightly deeper, and gently kissed her forehead, "I''ll go first..." Then he withdrew his deep eyes and turned away. However, just out of the door, he saw Gu Beichen standing on the edge of the elevator with his hands in his pockets, with a touch of evil and mocking smile on his thin lips. "So worried?" Gu Beichen said, "Shaoqin, some things... Can''t be changed." "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin smiled. "Let''s wait and see." Then he passed Gu Beichen coldly and entered the elevator. Mosen looked at Beichen and indifferently entered the elevator. Until the elevator door was closed, Gu Beichen''s deep ink pupil overflowed with a deep dark color. "Qin Shao," said Morson, "there is news. Gu Beichen''s people have gone to the small manor in the deep mountains." "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly. "Seems to be looking for something..." Chapter 551 Shi Shaoqin''s sight became deep and bottomless. Chen will never do things without reason, let alone without purpose So, what are you searching for in that manor? "What is juechi doing?" Shi Shaoqin asked indifferently when the elevator arrived. Mosen pondered a little, "the ink palace is very strict. In addition, all the incoming and outgoing transactions have been closed recently. There is no chance to come out. It is also quiet..." Shi Shaoqin looked out coldly. His eyes narrowed slightly. At the same time, he crossed his legs and got out of the elevator. "It seems that... Jue Chi has left some valuable information to Chen." "I don''t like any cold words or means." Mosen looked at the eye stone Shaoqin, "yes!" Shi Shaoqin glanced at Mosen and then went out When he got on the bus, he looked at the apartment building through the window. His eyes were deep and bottomless. "I''m afraid the efficacy of silenceds is not as long as we know..." Shi Shaoqin said faintly, "Jane Mo is not right today." Mohsen just got on the bus, looked back at Shi Shaoqin, lowered his eyes and said, "Qin Shao, will you..." With a brush, Shi Shaoqin slid his sharp eyes to morsen, "will it be anything?" Morson was swallowed by the sight, and quickly shook his head, "no, nothing..." He wanted to ask if it was true. As Gu Beichen said, Jian Mo just had deep love for him, so After all, silenceds can confuse people''s thinking and control people''s thoughts, but it is not magical enough to completely replace things that are firm enough to be engraved into bone and blood. Obviously, Jian Mo''s love for Gu Beichen is very deep Mosen''s mouth moved back and forth, trying to say what happened in the monitoring last night, but when it came to his mouth, he held it back. Whether it''s because of Gu Beichen''s threat or because Qin Shao knows the consequences of his concealment... He can''t say. "Go." Morson suddenly thought back, "yes!" He started the car, his indifferent face as usual. Just... He knew that after Gu Beichen knew the secret, sooner or later he would threaten him. Shi Shaoqin looked sideways at the passing scenery outside the window, and his eyes were dark. Although Jane Mo tried her best to pretend, she didn''t think clearly... There were too many flaws. ¡­¡­ "Can you draw QR code?" Gu Beichen felt a little funny when he saw that Jian Mo was keeping a certain distance from him, but his heart was very sad. Jane Mo glanced at Gu Beichen and shook her head. Gu Beichen smiled and didn''t speak. He just took a pen and paper Jian Mo walked over curiously and saw a QR code picture on Gu Beichen''s mobile phone. "What is this?" Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at Jian Mo, "form a QR code for what you want to say, and then draw it..." "Isn''t this unnecessary?" Jane frowned. Gu Beichen smiled, "how can it?" He looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. "Isn''t it a kind of love that a person becomes his own because of her preference?" Jane Mo is silent "For example, I send you books on architectural design. You like them very much." Gu Beichen''s voice is low and magnetic. "When one day, you find that you are very close and the people you like also like architectural design, you will be very happy." Jane Mo''s lips, the position of her heart beating faster and faster It''s like something wants to break through the imprisoned thoughts, but it can''t break out at the last moment. Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and had put his mobile phone. Relying on his just glance, he began to draw "Didn''t you sleep last night?" Although Gu Beichen was asking, he was obviously sure. "Well..." The pen in his hand stopped. Gu Beichen looked at the paper and felt distressed. "Don''t do this. After all, people can''t never sleep." "But why?" Jane Mo frowned, "when I sleep, I don''t remember the previous things. Even, it seems that I don''t care at all. I don''t have memory..." This feeling is particularly strong at the moment when she hasn''t forgotten her memory of yesterday. A person, how can there be no past? Gu Beichen sighed quietly, lowered his eyes and continued to draw. Jane Mo didn''t speak any more, so she looked at Gu Beichen drawing a QR code He just looked at it and could draw it so smoothly. Even, it was very good-looking. "Did you study painting or design?" "Design!" Jane Mo''s eyes lit up as soon as she heard it. "Are you studying design? So am I!" Gu Beichen slowly raised his head and looked at Jian Mo deeply. "Did you learn design?" Jian Mo was stunned by his rhetorical question, and then frowned Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly and looked at Jian Mo deeply, as if he wanted to see through something. Although it is said unconsciously, it is obvious that Mo''er''s memory is loose It is impossible that such a situation will occur without sleeping all night. Shi Shaoqin will not have such a loophole. The "buzzing" sound of the mobile phone interrupted the two people''s stunned mind. Gu Beichen picked up his mobile phone, looked at it and picked up the call "Chen Shao, I found..." Xiao Jing''s voice was a little urgent. "I sent you an email." Swallowing, his voice was obviously hurried, "I''m going to destroy things now. Shi Shaoqin''s people are nearby." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered and hung up. He looked at the two-dimensional code that he had written immediately, and pushed it directly to the foam in front of Jane. He just turned out the two-dimensional code that mobile phone had just formed. "The rest, it seems that you can only finish it for me." "Me?" Jane was stunned. Gu Beichen nodded and looked firmly. Jane Mo looked down at her mobile phone with puzzled eyes. It was strange that she thought she wouldn''t remember, but she remembered it after watching it for a while. "Yes!" Jian Mo seemed to have found the new world, smiled and nodded hurriedly, "I''ll take the rest." Gu Beichen was relieved at the bottom of his eyes, and then got up and went to the bedroom. When Shi Shaoqin came back from dinner, Gu Beichen was not in. He is not surprised. After all, if the emperor''s president spends all his time chasing women, it is a strange thing. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen left in the afternoon. Xiao Jing''s email was sent by Longxiao''s special code. In Shi Shaoqin''s place, he was afraid that the contents of the email would be leaked. In Longxiao''s villa, only the light of the study is on... The whole villa is dignified under repression. With a "drop", the mail was untied. When he opened it, Gu Beichen saw a scanned letter. It''s not so much a letter as a few notes Gu Beichen opens the first one "Shi juechi said that I was given a water-soluble drug. He stole the thin drug, but I don''t know if it''s useful... I overheard his conversation with Carney. This drug may make people confused! I''m afraid... I''m afraid I''ll forget him..." At the same time "Mo''er, come and drink the water..." Shi Shaoqin handed Jian mo the transparent glass. Chapter 552 Jian Mo looked at the glass and at Shi Shaoqin. He made a slight invisible sound at the corners of his mouth, "um", took the water cup and drank the water slowly Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. She didn''t take back the cup until she finished drinking the water. "I''m going to take a bath and go to bed..." Jane Mo drooped her eyes weakly, as if trying hard to suppress her drowsiness. "Go." Shi Shaoqin smiled and nodded. He looked at Jian Mo''s turn and went to the bedroom. As her back was farther and farther away, her eyes became deeper and deeper. Whether there is something wrong with the medicine or not, he can''t let Chen get anything from Jian Mo so soon. While thinking, a dark eye color crossed the bottom of his eyes, and a trace of emotion that even Shi Shaoqin himself didn''t know was mixed in it. Jane Mo closed the bedroom door and hurried to the bathroom... After closing the door, she opened the shower. Without even stopping, she ran directly to the toilet and began to put her fingers on her throat "Vomit... Vomit..." Jane Mo began to vomit because of nausea The sound of the shower covered the sound line of her vomiting. She tried her best to suppress the sound of her vomiting. She not only vomited the water she had just drunk, but also the food she ate at night. Jane Mo gasped sadly. The vomiting caused by external force made her stomach turn over sadly. Jian Mo''s body seemed to be evacuated. She leaned powerlessly on the glass platform and gasped... Trying to smooth the uncomfortable feeling. As the afternoon approached evening, Gu Beichen came out of her bedroom and said to her, "I''m going out... I don''t necessarily come back at any time in the evening." "Yes!" Jane Mo answered and handed the mended QR code to Gu Beichen. "I''ve finished painting this." She looked expectant at the bottom of her eyes and worried at the corners of her mouth. She looked a little nervous. Gu Beichen looked down, then took out his mobile phone and scanned the QR code After a second or two of caching, a sentence appeared on the mobile phone screen. "Don''t eat!" "Don''t eat indiscriminately?" Jian Mo frowned and repeated the QR code information, looking at Gu Beichen suspiciously. Gu Beichen''s thin lips lightly hooked a soft smile, "it''s all right to be at home alone. Think about this sentence..." He said softly, but the ink pupil was staring at Jian Mo firmly. Jane Mo was so involuntarily glued by Gu Beichen''s eyes that she wanted to avoid, but she was completely reluctant in her mind... Until finally, she nodded seriously on her subconscious face. Gu Beichen''s smile on his thin lips gradually spread to the bottom of his eyes, "I''m gone." "Oh..." Jane Mo answered, turned and watched Gu Beichen leave, with just two-dimensional code information in her mind. The sound of water filled her eardrums. Jane Mo took off her clothes and stood under the shower, stunned. She didn''t want to understand what Gu Beichen said, but just when Shaoshi gave her water, her heart began to resist Why did she believe Gu Beichen''s words without reason and begin to question Shaoshi who should not have doubted? ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen turns over the scanning notes sent by Xiao Jing one by one... Because Xiao Jing''s scanning is chaotic, the time axis does not follow from beginning to end. But basically, the above records are Jane Mo''s thoughts and love for him. Every time I look at one, it makes his heart tense "When I knew that I would jump into the Luocheng River to commit suicide in Los Angeles, I was thinking that he must not believe... Escape, not what I would do." "I miss him, and I also want milk bags." "There is no way to sleep, this time the reaction is so big!" "I don''t know why. I just know that one day he will find here and see these notes... Well, don''t ask me why, I''m so confident. To him and myself!" "Ah Chen, is it a pain for you to ''die'' once? If so, I feel it!" "I don''t know if he can use the medicine now, but I don''t even know if he can use it......" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The night wind blew in through the open window. Gu Beichen slightly supported one arm on the side of the window and controlled the steering wheel with one hand Cars converge into long rivers in the night, and bright and neon reflect each other. Gu Beichen''s cold face has a trace of pain that can''t be covered up. What kind of mood is she using in that small manor, wasting time a little bit? No matter in those two years or now, she will always be the one who knows what she wants most... Once she decides, she will never turn back. Mo''er, Mo''er ''squeak - '' The screeching sound of braking came from the road. Then, because of his temporary braking, the dodging vehicles heard the sound of flute, braking... Swearing. Gu Beichen turned a deaf ear to it, but... There was pain in the depths of the ink pupil. Then it turned into a fierce rage. Hands, clutching the steering wheel, making a ''rattle'' sound. Because of too much force, the knuckles were white. "Didi..." After the car, the sound of whistle kept coming, which finally brought back Gu Beichen''s thoughts. How long has it been since he lost control? Gu Beichen started the car again and drove to the apartment As the elevator climbed, Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed gradually until they became a gap and suddenly opened. The elevator arrived with a "Ding" sound. At the moment when the elevator door opened, Gu Beichen stopped his original move to lift his feet Shi Shaoqin stood outside the elevator with his pocket in one hand. When he saw Gu Beichen, a thin smile came to the corners of his mouth. "I thought you wouldn''t come back..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was slow but cold. "Does it make any difference if I don''t come back?" Gu Beichen spoke coldly. Shi Shaoqin smiled, "do you want to go out for a drink?" "Good!" Shi Shaoqin stepped in just as the elevator door was about to close He glanced at Gu Beichen. When he acted, he pressed the open key and Gu Beichen''s hand. Gu Beichen released the press button, pressed the negative first floor, and stood there with a indifferent face, as if he were alone in the elevator car. "Do you think... Jane Mo is not right today?" Shi Shaoqin said after looking at the declining figures. Gu Beichen looked unchanged. "In my eyes, she is always the one I love." "How..." Shi Shaoqin smiled at Gu Beichen. "Don''t you want her to be more thoughtful?" Gu Beichen glanced at Shi Shaoqin with sharp eyes, "so what if there is? Jianmo, just Jianmo... That''s all I love!" Chapter 553 With a Ding, the elevator arrived. However, neither Shi Shaoqin nor Gu Beichen moved. The two people''s eyes are projected together fiercely, regardless of the moment, electro-optic flint. In the narrow lift car, the atmosphere condenses and makes people feel depressed With the opening of the elevator door, the atmosphere at that moment was solidified, making each other unable to breathe. "What if you love Jane?" Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "she will only gradually forget you... Completely!" "Shaoqin," Gu Beichen called softly, and his eyes looked at Shi Shaoqin more and more deeply. "Do you know what you look like now?" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly as no one went out of the elevator and the elevator door closed again. Gu Beichen slowly leaned forward. When Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were getting darker and darker, he stopped in his ear, "it''s like being jealous..." With a brush, Shi Shaoqin''s eyes suddenly became sharp. Gu Beichen felt Shi Shaoqin''s displeasure, but he continued without moving: "it''s just... Whose vinegar are you eating?" Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes have gradually narrowed, and the two cold lights from the bottom of his eyes seem to be shooting through the elevator wall. Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a cold radian, "is it me? Or..." he deliberately paused, "... Mo''er?" Something knocked hard on Shi Shaoqin''s chest, and his eyes were dark, as if he was ready to devour everything around him at any time. "But whether it''s me or Mo''er..." Gu Beichen slowly straightened up and looked at Shi Shaoqin indifferently. "It''s doomed that you can only look up." Without warning, Shi Shaoqin suddenly attacked Gu Beichen Gu Beichen, however, seemed to have a prediction and easily avoided it! The lift car of the elevator is not big. It''s difficult for two men with a height of more than 180 to expand it! However, they are flexible. You come and go, and no one takes too much advantage. "Your purpose is to annoy me?" Shi Shaoqin hissed coldly. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes knew, "Shaoqin, I have achieved my goal, haven''t I?" With a bang, the two men stepped back in the opposite direction and hit the elevator wall while punching each other. "Don''t you want to find the depression in your heart?" Shi Shaoqin sneered, "is the news Xiao Jing brought you today... Wonderful?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, took out his mobile phone and dialed Xiao Jing''s phone Prompt: unable to connect! "Brother Jing, what should I do?" Deep in the mountains, several people who nestled in dense weeds whispered. Xiao Jing looked up to see the sky... But the intricate trees almost covered the sky. The worst thing is that the weather here today is not good, there is no star light or anything. "Wait until dawn..." Xiao Jing took out his mobile phone and motioned to the people next to him. The person next to him clearly took off his clothes and covered his mobile phone Xiao Jing opened his mobile phone and saw that there was no signal. He could only call up the built-in GPS positioning system to send a signal. ¡­¡­ Jane Mo is in bed, tossing and turning and can''t sleep If I didn''t want to sleep last night, I just wanted to test whether I would forget things if I slept. Well, tonight, she was really sleepless because of too many problems. Just now, Shao Shi came in to see her... Just like last night! Last night she thought he came back and wanted to see if she was asleep. What about just now? If she didn''t think too much, there was something wrong with that glass of water... Did he come in just to make sure he was asleep? So, is there any direct connection between sleeping and that glass of water? Jane turned over again She can''t never sleep. Even if she wants to, her body may not be able to bear it. It''s just that once you sleep like this, you will forget the feeling of the previous day. She doesn''t like it. Jane Mo suddenly sat up. Now she has only two days of "memory", but these two days of memory, she found that she basically cares about what Gu Beichen said to him. Jian Mo sighed heavily, and his subordinates consciously covered the position of his lower abdomen I don''t know why. When I put my hand there, I feel at ease inexplicably. As if there were energy to support her. The next day, the seaside city had been sunny for many days, and the weather became gloomy. After washing, Jane Mo went out of the bedroom. In the apartment, everything was quiet and treacherous. According to the routine of two-day memory, Shao Shi should be making breakfast now... But no one. Jane Mo went to the kitchen and made sure that there was not only no one, but also that the kitchen was clean and had not moved anything. With doubts, Jane Mo wanted to see if Gu Beichen was there Shi Shaoqin looked at the monitor with a cold smile on his lips. "She seems to... Remember to call Chen?" Mosen''s heart suddenly chilled and didn''t make a sound. "Although silenceds can''t completely control the consciousness of people with firm faith..." Shi Shaoqin continued slowly, "but I only ate it last night, so I don''t need to remind you today." Morson swallowed involuntarily, and the Adam''s apple rolled obviously. Yesterday, in the QR code Gu Beichen gave Jian Mo, it was said that he was not allowed to eat casually. However, in the evening, Qin Shao gave Jane Mo''s silence dissolved water, and she drank it. Therefore, he did not report this matter to Qin Shao How did this happen? "Maybe..." Morson swallowed again. "Is it unconscious?" After all, her first reaction was that she didn''t see Qin Shao just now Shi Shaoqin looked at the video. Jian Mo came out with doubts because she didn''t find Gu Beichen, and her eyes were getting deeper and deeper. "Arrange Juchi to come over!" "Huh?" Mosen didn''t react for a moment. Seeing Shi Shaoqin glancing at him, he quickly replied, "yes!" Shi Shaoqin put his eyes back on the monitor and watched Jian Mo walk towards the balcony. His eyes gradually sank I''d like to see this play... How do you go on. ¡­¡­ "Mo palace closes the transaction. It''s hard to contact the legendary Shi Jue Chi!" Gu Beichen strolled in the community and said faintly, "the influence of the Chen family here is not small?" Chen Xuan rolled his eyes. "Who dares to say that his power is not small on the beach?" This place is a complex city. It is the darkest under the brightest light. "He may come here in recent days..." "How do you know?" Chen Xuan was surprised. Gu Beichen didn''t explain, "if he and Shi Shaoqin are twins, I think... It shouldn''t be difficult for the Chen family to know if he came to the beach secretly." "Well, I can only try..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered, then stopped and turned around. Look up... The line of sight falls in the direction of the apartment balcony. Because of the distance, he could only see one figure... But at that moment, he knew that Jian Mo was looking at her, too. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and murmured, "please believe that you are not alone in the face... Behind you, there will always be one I let you rely on!" Chapter 554 For two days in a row, Chen Xuan arranged for someone to secretly check whether a man who looked like Shi Shaoqin entered the beach. "Xuan Shao, you said... Will it be Shi Shaoqin that we finally waited for?" Someone looked at Chen Xuan, who was playing a fighting game, with an apple in his hand. Chen Xuan didn''t care about him, but concentrated on the game Until the sound of "ah" came and he hit the other party, he threw the control board in some boredom. "Who knows..." Chen Xuan stretched. "Who are the people in Mo palace? They are either cold-blooded or outlaws... Shi Shaoqin who can control these people is a myth." The man rolled his eyes and threw the apple to Chen Xuan. "What we''re talking about now is Shi Juxi." "I know..." Chen Xuan looked serious, took a bite of the apple and bolted, "who has seen Shi Juxi for so many years?" A rhetorical question, the man opened his mouth, but closed it again "Or it should be said that some people have seen it, but they may not know it." Chen Xuan shrugged. "In fact, I''m thinking... Sometimes Shi Shaoqin and Shi juechi are actually one person." "What do you mean?" The man''s eyes suddenly became sharp. Chen Xuan narrowed his eyes slightly and bit the apple again. He chewed slowly Until he swallowed it, he said slowly, "they are twins. They must look very similar... At least, outsiders can''t see it." "And then?" The man frowned, as if he had understood Chen Xuan''s meaning. Chen Xuan looked at him, "then?" He sneered. "Then, it''s hard to deal with both of them... So, it''s even harder to know if he came to the beach." ¡­¡­ "You can''t do this..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and frowned. The bottom of his eyes was completely distressed. "I have to sleep tonight." Jane shook her head. "I can''t sleep..." At first, I wanted to experiment to see if sleeping would forget the memory of the previous day, so I didn''t sleep. But... Now she can''t sleep even if she closes her eyes. It''s like a spring in my head. I keep screwing it. I can''t sleep at all. It feels like an anorexic person wants to eat but can''t eat. And she created a new term... Anorexia! Gu Beichen''s sword eyebrows were locked, "I must sleep tonight..." "Ah Chen, I have no way!" Jane Mo shouted like this, as if for granted. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. At that moment, his heart gradually tightened Jian Mo''s eyes turned red, and the fundus of his eyes was filled with a thin layer of water mist, which stained his sight. "I can''t sleep, I''m afraid my memory will be gone..." Gu Beichen''s cold face gradually opened a gap, which overflowed with grief. He fished with his long arm and took Jian Mo into his arms The smell of Jian Mo was all in his nose. He felt the body trembling in his arms. Gu Beichen''s heart and nerves were screwed together. He didn''t know whether he was in love with Jane Mo or angry with himself. His strength gradually tightened a little, as if he wanted to knead her directly into his body... In this way, he would bear her pain! "Forget..." Gu Beichen slowly opened his lips tightly into a line, "there''s me, isn''t there?" Jian Mo didn''t think deeply about Gu Beichen''s words, but instinctively trusted him She didn''t sleep for four nights. She closed her eyes all night, but she woke up until dawn During the day, she pretended she didn''t remember. "Is it Shao Shi..." Jian Mo asked after all. At that moment, her heart seemed to have been caught, "is it him?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, let go of Jian Mo, and Mo Tong stared at her deeply "Mo''er," Gu Beichen sighed softly, "no one can take away your memory. Only you can take it away." Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen dimly with tearful eyes, at a loss. "If you don''t want to forget, what can control a person''s nerves?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were burning, straight through Jian Mo''s eyes and poked into her heart, "only when you have something to escape and want to forget... The soul is the most vulnerable time." According to Mo''er''s messages, if it is really the cause of drugs, there should be clues in the early stage Even, when thinking about going back now, Mo''er had a moment or intermittent "amnesia" before. But in the end, she just confused or forgotten the memory of something, and there was no greater diffusion. I don''t rule out that at the beginning, it is because the dose of drugs is small... But he believes that only when a person''s consciousness is firm can he resist external interference. And what interferes with Mo''er I''m afraid they may be related by blood! Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen as if she didn''t understand his words The memory of several days has not been forgotten, and her rejection of Shaoshi is becoming stronger and stronger. And Gu Beichen, more and more dependent on Why should Shi Caicai lie to her? And Gu Beichen... But he doesn''t know the cause? ¡­¡­ "Xuan Shao, there is news that Shi juechi will arrive in the afternoon..." the reporter''s steady voice came over the phone. "Port or airport?" Chen Xuan asked. "Airport!" "Hmm..." Chen Xuan answered, hung up the phone and slowly dropped his hand. He wanted to see how much Shi juechi and Shi Shaoqin looked like Turning around, Chen Xuanshun took the sunglasses on the table, put them on, opened the door and left the hotel. The silver gray sports car drove to the airport with arrogance, quickly interspersed in the traffic flow, with first-class technology, but attracted avoidance or maniacal whistle because of danger. "Squeak -" A beautiful elegant, Chen Xuan''s car has been steadily parked in the parking space. Open the door, get out of the car and finish it at one go. In due time, the mobile phone rings Chen Xuan took it out and looked at it. After the call, the line of sight behind the sunglasses crossed a smile of evil. "Xuan Shao, get the latest news. Shi juechi''s flight will arrive in an hour..." "I''m already at the airport." Chen Xuan smiled at the corners of his mouth, not forgetting the relaxed atmosphere, "what are you nervous about?" "...." the other party was obviously speechless and choked. Chen Xuan hung up the phone and walked to the elevator with great strides Press the up button and Chen Xuandan waits with his hand in his pocket. The numbers beat one by one. When the sound of arrival came, the elevator door "clattered" opened. There are two people inside. They don''t look special. Chen Xuan politely stepped aside and let the two people out before stepping into the elevator. Stand still and press the number of the pick-up floor Chen Xuan looked straight at them and watched their backs disappear under the closed elevator door. Chapter 555 "I''ve arrived in Los Angeles. Are you still following me?" Shi Jue Chi''s warm face was so indifferent. "Qin Shao told me to take you to the hotel first." Shi juechi looked back at the man who was pushing the frameless glasses on the bridge of his nose, sighed and continued to walk forward. Shijuechi in Haibin city has been here several times, which was a long time ago. His impression is that this is the most direct interest point of Mo palace... After all, this city is dazzling, but the dark forces are also the most prosperous place in the country. Xu is that the development of the dark forces is so overbearing that the economy here is in line with international standards... After a few years, high-rise buildings make him feel like many monsters overlooking the sadness of human nature. The car stops at the smile hotel. Shi juechi doesn''t need to worry about anything. Everything has been arranged. Even, Shi juechi can be sure that there are already many Qin people in the hotel... It''s not easy for him to find a chance to do something. "Qin Shao is waiting for you to eat in the garden restaurant." When Morson saw Shi juechi coming in, he spoke slowly. "I''ll change my clothes..." Shi juechi was not surprised and said calmly. "OK." After responding respectfully, Mohsen looked at the man with glasses. Shi juechi took off his sunglasses. "I''m afraid Shaoqin has isolated all the things that can deliver messages here?" Mohsen twitched at the corners of his mouth and left without saying anything However, the man with glasses calmly put down his handbag, took out the computer from it, turned it on and began to work. Shi juechi ignored him and went to repair and change his clothes. After everything was done, it was half an hour later. In this world, no one can let Shi Shaoqin wait... Except a Shi Juxi. Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin, his face was a little dark, and suddenly he wanted to laugh He forgot that it was not just him, Gu Beichen was also one of them. "Is there anyone else?" Seeing that it was three sets of tableware, Shi Juxi asked deliberately. Shi Shaoqin looked at him with deep eyes, "you want to see Jian mo... How can I not let you see?" "Shaoqin..." "Juechi, I don''t always give in." Shi Shaoqin slightly narrowed his eyes. "You should know that if it wasn''t for you..." he paused. There was a touch of pain overflow in the fundus of his eyes, but it disappeared in an instant. "If it weren''t for considering you, I wouldn''t let you see her at all." Shi Jue Chi smiled softly. The beautiful sun moved westward and became gentle. "We are brothers, aren''t we?" "Hum!" Shi Shaoqin snorted coldly. Shi juechi sighed, "Shaoqin, I miss her..." A few words, very light. The light is like the wind blowing away without shadow or trace. Shi Shaoqin looked at Shi juechi with deep eyes, just like a detector, trying to look directly at his heart. "At first, I thought I was lying to you..." Shi Jue Chi looked at the sunset with a thin sadness on his warm face, "but not now." You will be attracted to Jane Mo if you don''t get along with her for a long time. He knows what kind of person Gu Beichen is. The woman who can make him love more than life must have her charming things Hearing Shi juechi say this, Shi Shaoqin''s eyes darkened... But he didn''t find this emotion himself. Shi juechi looked back at Shi Shaoqin. "I don''t want to see her hurt... This is my wish." Paused, "Shaoqin, you will help me realize it, won''t you?" ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen rushed to the airport to meet Chen Xuan. "Where are the people?" Gu Beichen asked in a low voice. Chen Xuan shrugged. "I didn''t see anyone. I either arrived early or stepped back." Shi juechi''s whereabouts were so secret that everyone was surprised. After all, if you put smoke bombs like this everywhere you go, how tired is this person to live? Besides... None of them will use their true identity when traveling. Which hand doesn''t have an alternate identity to replace? "But..." Chen Xuan sighed heavily. "I think people should have arrived." Gu Beichen glanced at him, frowned slightly, turned and walked to the elevator Chen Xuan looked at his back, dignified in solitude. Such Gu Beichen is something he has never seen Gu Beichen he knew was cold-blooded and overbearing... Ruthless in the mall and loveless in women! But there was only a simple foam "Xuan Shao and Chen Shao seem very angry with you?" Chen Xuan looked at the speaker. "He''s not angry with me, he''s angry with himself!" The car is racing on the road. Gu Beichen can only hope that Shi juechi and Jian Mo haven''t met yet Originally, he hoped to stop Shi Juxi. First, get to know the water-soluble medicine. Second, don''t want him to let Mo''er''s efforts in recent days be wasted because of "concern". After that, he will be perverted by Shi Shaoqin. But now, whether Shi Shaoqin is on guard or Shi juechi''s whereabouts are hidden, it''s obvious that the road is impassable. Then, I can only go back and remind Mo''er. Gu Beichen''s deep ink pupil can''t see the bottom. It''s too difficult for Mo''er to disguise in front of Shi Shaoqin and Shi juechi. However, I can only try... Take one step and see one step. The car stopped in the underground parking lot. Gu Beichen stepped into the elevator. Looking at the rising numbers, Mo Tong understood it more and more. Open the door and enter He looked across the living room and finally strode to the bedroom. Around the empty silence, the silence makes people feel terrible. Gu Beichen''s heart has condensed together. He closed his eyes, covered up all his worries, brushed it and suddenly opened it. He took out his mobile phone and dialed Shi Shaoqin as he walked out "Where is it?" Gu Beichen is easy to be brief and comprehensive, and presses the down button of the elevator. The phone was silent for a few seconds, and then a voice came, "why? You want to eat with me?" Gu Beichen entered the elevator, "where is it?" His voice was a little cold, but there was no more. Shi Shaoqin looked ahead and looked at Jian Mo, who was picked up by Mosen. The corner of his mouth was slightly hooked with an evil smile, "guess?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "Find me... Surprise you tonight!" Shi Shaoqin spoke slowly. Gu Beichen gritted his teeth. "Shi Shaoqin, don''t break the rules of the game." Shi Shaoqin laughed loudly, but sneered coldly, "Chen, I will allow you to be kind to her and remind her of all kinds with you... I will not be allowed to leave anything in her heart?" "What do you mean?" Gu Beichen asked as the elevator arrived. Shi Shaoqin smiled but didn''t speak. He glanced lightly and came back to the bathroom. Just after seeing Jian Mo''s Shi Juxi, he said, "well, if you''re fast enough, you should be able to have dinner with me." The words fell and Gu Beichen was no longer given the chance to speak. Shi Shaoqin had already hung up the phone. His sight also slowly fell on Jian Mo from Shi juechi Jian Mo involuntarily stopped and looked at Shi Jue Chi, stunned! Chapter 556 Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo, and his sight gradually became gentle Jian Mo stared at Shi juechi. He was stunned for a while, and gradually turned his head slightly in doubt... His sight just fell on Shi Shaoqin, as if looking for an answer. "Mo Mo..." Shi Juxi called softly. He knew that silenceds might control people''s thinking, but he didn''t expect that Jane Mo would be so confused about him It''s like they never know each other, just strangers. A feeling of boredom came to his mind from the bottom of his heart, and Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin angrily. After all these years, does Shaoqin understand that many things cannot be forced? Is he not afraid to cause the coveted of all countries and bring subversive disaster to the Mo palace? Which country allows such drugs to be available? "What are you standing for?" Shi Shaoqin stood up slowly, but looked at Shi Juxi calmly. After a hint of warning from the bottom of his eyes, he walked to Jian mo. He gently held Jianmo''s hand and smiled softly. "The caviar in this restaurant is good..." he said, pulling Jianmo to the table. "It''s not good to be stuffy at home every day." Jian Mo listened to Shi Shaoqin''s explanation, raised the corner of his mouth, watched Shi juechi sit down, and asked, "who is he?" "He?" Shi Shaoqin said softly and looked at Shi Juxi. "Friend." "Friend..." after Jane Mo chewed the word, she smiled and looked at Shi Jue Chi, "Hello, I''m Jane mo." After introducing herself, she frowned slightly, "Oh, you just called me... So you knew me before?" "Also?" Shi juechi looked straight at Jian Mo and frowned slightly, "what do you mean?" "Shao Shi has a friend named Gu Beichen. He is the same as you." There was some distress on Jian Mo''s face, "I can''t remember many things in the past..." Shi juechi glanced at Shi Shaoqin, "is he on the beach, too?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t answer, but smiled faintly. As Shi Juxi, who was most familiar with him, he just felt that his heart was trembling. "You don''t know?" Shi Shaoqin''s mouth was lightly filled with a smile. Shi juechi had a look at the bottom of his eyes "Do you know Gu Beichen, too?" Jane Mo became more and more curious, but after asking, she looked more and more lonely. She lowered her eyes and her voice became stuffy. "In fact, we all know each other... But why don''t I remember you?" Jane Mo said at last, some sad lips. The hand was covered by the big palm and gently pinched. Jian Mo glanced at Shi Shaoqin with crystal light flashing at the bottom of her eyes "Don''t you remember me?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, "Mo''er, only what you care about most will not be forgotten... Isn''t it?" Jian Mo looked into Shi Shaoqin''s eyes. At that moment, she had only one feeling The whole world is in Shao Shi''s eyes. Only by his side, her world should be complete. She struggled for several days and didn''t even sleep However, what Shaoshi said at the moment made her unable to refute. She forgot things and many people, but she didn''t forget him, did she? "Eat first, huh?" Shi Shaoqin''s tone was more gentle. He rubbed the back of Jian Mo''s hand with his belly. "Usually you eat at this time." Under the leadership of Shi Shaoqin, Jian Mo smiled, "HMM." The afterglow of the evening hit Jian Mo''s face through the branches and leaves. She was already good-looking. Under such an impurity free smile, she was even more charming. Shi juechi sat opposite and looked at it quietly But his heart was heavy. Shaoqin is guiding Mo Mo''s thoughts. If he goes on like this... In case of unconsciousness, Mo Mo may fall in love with Shaoqin. Chi suddenly shivered. Fall in love with Shaoqin Shi juechi resisted such an idea. Not just because I have ideas about Jane now, but If he had another idea, it was just a sigh of missing time. But Shaoqin is different... For Momo and Gu Beichen, it is even more different. After a meal, Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo had a good time, and Shi Juxi was very silent. He wanted to find out whether Jian Mo knew anything about her pregnancy... But he was afraid that Shi Shaoqin would see something, so he had to give up at last. "Juechi, what''s on your mind?" Shi Shaoqin asked after Jian Mo went to the bathroom. "What do you say?" Shi juechi didn''t hide it at all. "Shaoqin, if it''s your goal to make me uncomfortable, you''ve achieved it." His words were somewhat resolute. Even though he was angry with Shi Shaoqin in the past, his gentle temperament never said such heavy words. "Juxi!" Shi Shaoqin also sank his face. Shi Jue Chi Suo put down his knife and fork. "I like her, but you perform so in front of me because of your purpose... Shaoqin, if this is the pain you gave me in order to break my idea, I accept it." He got up, his voice was not too heavy from beginning to end, but repressed. "If..." Shi juechi smiled and laughed at himself, "this is your care for me, and I''ll take it." A trace of desolation crossed, and Shi juechi glanced at Shi Shaoqin and turned to leave. "Juechi..." Shi Shaoqin didn''t move, but his eyes gradually deepened. "For a Gu Beichen, do you want to oppose me?" Shi juechi stopped and looked at the front. There was grief at the bottom of his eyes. "Shaoqin, I don''t believe you don''t understand..." he laughed at himself, "I''m not looking for Gu Beichen at the moment." Then he looked down slightly, then pulled back and left with big steps. "Well, how did he go?" When Jane Mo came back, she just saw the back of Shi Jue Chi leaving. "Something." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were familiar, but his tone didn''t overflow any emotion. "Oh..." Jian Mo looked at the back of Yan Shijue Chi again. "I just remembered, I didn''t ask his name!" Shi Shaoqin smiled, "ask again when you see him next time..." "Well, good!" Jane Mo nodded with a smile and didn''t feel anything wrong. However, she was thinking in her heart... If she couldn''t sleep, would she be unable to remember even if she met next time? ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen stopped at the parking lot of smile Hotel, got out of the car and strode to the garden restaurant. "Chen Shao." Someone came face to face. "Still there?" Gu Beichen kept walking. The man nodded, "it''s not over yet, just because the venue is reserved, and there''s no way to get close..." Gu Beichen glanced at him, "I know." Smile hotel belongs to the Dragon Empire group. They have their rules... Even with the relationship of dragon owl, sometimes things that are too sensitive are considered. After Shi juechi came out of the garden restaurant, he didn''t go back to his room. He just walked in the courtyard of the hotel. He looked at Gu Beichen in a hurry. Unexpectedly, he just knew that Gu Beichen was also on the beach and met him so soon Chapter 557 "Never less!" Shi juechi just wanted to take the opportunity to communicate with Gu Beichen, when he was shouted. Secretly gritting his teeth, Shi Juxi turned around and saw the person accompanying him to the beach standing not far away The man with glasses pushed down his eyes, glanced at Gu Beichen, then pulled back his eyes and said, "if I were never less, I would never do anything impulsively now." Shi Juxi coldly took back his sight and watched Gu Beichen go farther and farther "In fact, I never thought about why Qin Shao chose the smile hotel. Can it be said that he still has some roots with the Dragon owl?" The man with glasses came forward and watched Gu Beichen''s back go farther and farther. Shi Jue Chi said faintly, "the dragon family wants to force the Dragon owl to return to the dragon family. Naturally, in this matter, they won''t let the Dragon owl''s people fool around." "Yes, I don''t know much. What else do you want to do?" The glasses man sighed and shook his head. "The Dragon owl hasn''t made a decision yet. Even Gu Beichen has no reason to force him to choose... So he didn''t do anything to embarrass the Dragon owl, did he?" Shi juechi looked at the man with glasses and sighed secretly. After looking at Gu Beichen, he turned and went to the opposite place to continue walking He and Shaoqin are twins, but they are fraternal twins. There are only some eyebrows and eyes, and the rest are not. Even if someone in the outside world knows his existence, if you look for him like Shaoqin, you can''t find him at all He thought about this problem on the plane. With Gu Beichen, he may know that he is coming. After all, in the small manor, Jane Mo left a message so smart Siyue knew from Rogge that Xiao Jing had gone to the small manor? A person who knows Shaoqin''s means, a person who is so tenacious and can play games for three months... Even if Jian Mo''s information is not necessarily useful, Gu Beichen should be able to think about something? Don''t they all say that people who love each other have telepathy? Shi juechi stopped, and a touch of bitterness crossed the corners of his mouth. A man like him can only be himself in his life... It''s best not to be moved, but to be moved Shi Jue Chi breathed a long sigh of relief, and the heaviness gradually dissipated, replacing the warmth. Experience, at least after the last life, there will be no regret, won''t there? ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen arrives at the garden restaurant, but is stopped by the waiter. "I''m sorry, sir." The waiter said politely, "the restaurant is booked." Gu Beichen glanced indifferently. Because the trees blocked him, he couldn''t see the situation inside. "I''m looking for Mr. Shao." The waiter listened and asked, "who''s calling, sir? I need to go in and ask." "Gu Beichen!" The waiter still had the inside, "OK." He motioned to the next person and turned into the restaurant. After a while, the waiter came out, "Mr. Shao, please go in..." and he turned sideways. "Thank you." While Gu Beichen''s words fell, he already carried his steps in. "Pretty fast..." Shi Shaoqin smiled. When Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen, she was slightly surprised at the bottom of her eyes. "Are you here to eat, too?" After you frowned, you knew that Beichen was nearby "Oh..." Jane Mo answered, and then said as if unintentionally, "come here early. You may see another friend." "Oh?" Gu Beichen said softly, "who?" Jane was stunned, and then said with some embarrassment, "I... Forgot to ask his name." Gu Beichen raised his thin lips and looked at Shi Shaoqin. "You may not want to see him..." said Shao Leng Shi vaguely. Gu Beichen didn''t ask much, but after ordering the meal under the waiter''s inquiry, he looked at Jian Mo thoughtfully. As if... It was different from when they separated in the afternoon. His sight fell on the water cup at Jian Mo''s hand, and Gu Beichen sighed secretly It''s impossible to avoid it completely in Shi Shaoqin''s hands, or the current situation of Mo''er. Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo have just finished abusing Shi juechi, and then give Gu Beichen eye medicine... One is happy and the other is ignorant. A meal, from the evening to the evening, starry. Gu Beichen left the hotel and went back to his apartment together. This is the first time in these days In the evening, both Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin were there. "Are you sleepy?" As soon as he entered the house, Shi Shaoqin saw that Jian Mo was a little spiritless. Jane Mo drooped her eyelids and nodded weakly. "Wash early and go to bed," Shi Shaoqin said softly to Jian Mo, "huh?" "Well..." Jane Mo answered skillfully, "then I''ll go to bed first. Good night." After talking to Shi Shaoqin, without even looking at Beichen, Jian Mo went to his bedroom Gu Beichen''s sideburns moved slightly, and there was a trace of imperceptible gloom on his cold, carved face. A few days of hard work can''t equal Shi Shaoqin''s two hours. It''s just that Mo''er''s body is under the medicine "Shaoqin, make a deal!" Gu Beichen opened his thin lips and looked at Shi Shaoqin. "I''ll move out of here and you''ll stop taking medicine for Mo''er." "That''s not fun?" Shi Shaoqin smiled gloomily, "Chen, these days... He hasn''t slept well under your guidance?" Yes, yes. Looking at Gu Beichen''s calm face, Shi Shaoqin just smiled and walked to his bedroom with one hand. Gu Beichen suddenly clenched his hand The eagle''s eyes narrowed slowly. After forming a gap, they suddenly opened, and the bottom of their eyes was cold. After washing, Jane went to bed. Maybe it''s because she didn''t sleep for several days, maybe it''s something else. After touching the bed... She fell asleep sleepily. Even if... There is a voice in her heart telling her that she can''t sleep! Night, for those who like light, the long is maddening. However, as the fairest existence in the world, time will never think that your waiting or expectation will stop for half a minute or speed up. When the light of dawn tears the darkness and the warm light of dawn shines, a new day ushers in a new beginning. Jane woke up as usual. She opened her eyes and looked at the roof After a while, she suddenly sat up. There was surprise in the black pupil, and even slightly opened his mouth... Gradually, there was a crack in his face to resist. Is she asleep? How could she let herself fall asleep? Jane Mo gasped slightly, with fear and resistance in the fundus of her eyes However, turning around, she suddenly remembered something and slapped her eyelashes twice. She went to bed last night However, she even remembered the events of these days and didn''t forget them? Chapter 558 Everything is as usual. According to her memory, what she will do and "forget" when she gets up early every day is like a process and goes very smoothly Sometimes people play more, and gradually, they put their life in the play. Sometimes, I can''t tell whether life is like a play or life is like a play. Jane Mo is not stupid. She just forgets something after her mind is controlled by drugs After a few days of memory and some ideas, she doesn''t fully believe Shaoshi or Gu Beichen. Only when she has a skeptical attitude towards both of them can she be impartial and not be influenced by her feelings to see the root of things Why would she do this! For a few days, Jane Mo won''t forget what happened the day before after she woke up. Gradually, she went to bed at ease and behaved as usual. No It just became normal in Shi Shaoqin''s eyes, and everything returned to the starting point in Gu Beichen''s eyes. Although one is not as strange as the "first face", he will occasionally be attracted by his words and a look, but he can''t remember his Jane Mo! Of course, such a result is what Shi Shaoqin is happy to see. "I''m fine in the evening. I''ll take you out for a walk... Huh?" Shi Shaoqin glanced at Beichen and spoke softly. "OK." Jane Mo answered, and her eyes overflowed with expectation. Shi Shaoqin smiled softly, but looking at the smile on Jian Mo''s face, the line of sight under his eyes gradually became deeper Gu Beichen didn''t pay attention to Shi Shaoqin, and his sight fell on Jian Mo''s face from beginning to end. In addition to the heaviness of the heart, it seems that there is no other way These days, I don''t know whether Shi Shaoqin deliberately or intentionally takes Mo''er out every day... Shi Shaoqin is very patient, but he has never been so patient with a person. Do you want to verify something, or just to prevent Mo''er from getting along with him? He got up and didn''t say anything. Gu Beichen went back to his bedroom and changed his clothes. "Eh, are you going out?" Jane Mo fanned her eyes curiously. Gu Beichen''s steps are slightly sluggish. No matter how much pain he has in his heart, the lines of his face are always soft in the face of Jian mo. "There are some things to do..." "Oh!" Jane Mo answered faintly. Gu Beichen knew there was no following, smiled with Jian Mo, then opened the door and left His main thought now should not be on Mo''er, but on Shi juechi! ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. Emperor group and Gu family, after the death of grandma Gu, the "death" of Jian Mo, and the power struggle between Jian Heng''s illegitimate son and Gu mohuai, it seems that everything is quiet. For ordinary people, they are still making a living every day. For the rich and powerful, it is not strange to see such "calm". "Li Shao, the situation of Chu Zixiao seems to be good these two days..." a doctor said after patrolling the room, "the sense of survival is much stronger." Li Yunze is a doctor. He needs to be calm at all times and can''t be influenced by feelings. For Chu Zixiao, it''s best to wake up... After all, it''s not unforgivable for such an excellent person to go astray for love. Besides, in the end, he lost his way. "Watch more." Li Yunze gave a faint command. The doctor nodded, discussed with Li Yunze about something in the hospital, turned and left However, when I just opened the door of the office and wanted to leave, I suddenly thought of something and asked, "Shuya has ordered Dr. he Yining he to participate in the operation of old Lin." Li Yunze frowned slightly and invisibly, and a touch of pain crossed his eyes The doctor didn''t notice, just waiting for Li Yunze''s reaction. Lin Lao, as a senior general of the military department, both the military and the government attached great importance to the operation and had a joint consultation with the two hospitals. In fact, the chief surgeon is Li Shao, which is basically perfect... The other hospital just needs to send a doctor who doesn''t lag behind as a deputy. Who is it doesn''t need to be considered too much. Seeing Li Yunze, the doctor only thought that old Lin had a relationship with Li Yunze, so he considered it more carefully. "Just her." Li Yunze answered faintly. "OK." The doctor nodded and left the office. At the moment when the door closed, Li Yunze''s hand gradually clenched The sound of "Gaga" dislocation echoed in the office, and in an instant, the surrounding space condensed. Such a dignified, until it is broken by the ''buzzing'' vibration of the mobile phone in the pocket. Li Yunze slowly let go of his clenched hand, gradually dispersed the strange smell from his body, and took out his mobile phone. After seeing the call, he saw that it was the Dragon owl, and hurriedly picked it up, "dragon boss..." "Contact Beichen." the voice of the Dragon owl is as indifferent and cold as ever, with an unpredictable low voice. "There are many people in this world, but there are also many different people." "Ah?" Li Yunze didn''t respond, "what?" The Dragon owl knew that Li Yunze heard clearly and didn''t repeat it. He just waited for him to sort out his thoughts. After a while, I heard Li Yunze''s confused voice, "that''s all?" "Yes!" The Dragon owl responded indifferently. Li Yunze was surprised and asked, "why don''t you say it yourself?" The Dragon owl was silent for two seconds and said coldly, "it''s inconvenient." "Poof..." Li Yunze glanced, as if a little depressed, "Alas, I used to get together often. Now there are four people, all over the world." The Dragon owl''s Obsidian eyes were deep. He felt something in Li Yunze''s heart. He didn''t ask, but said faintly, "I''ll go back in a few days." Li Yunze''s heart was warm, although the Dragon owl indirectly recognized the familiar because of Gu Beichen. However, people who know the Dragon owl know... As long as they can be brothers by him, they are real brothers. He chatted with the Dragon owl again. After Li Yunze hung up his phone, he turned around and called Gu Beichen. "Well, what does boss long mean?" Li Yunze couldn''t figure it out. "Besides, if he didn''t say it himself, let me go around... Beichen, don''t tell me, because Shi Shaoqin, you''re angry with boss long." "No..." Gu Beichen leaned against the fence by the sea, looked up slightly and looked at a huge ferris wheel in front of him, "this matter involves the dragon family." In this way, Li Yunze understood and didn''t ask much. "Then..." "I''ll think about it." Gu Beichen said. Li Yunze didn''t ask any more after listening to his friends who played from childhood. He knew that Gu Beichen had no way to be sure and didn''t want him to worry. After hanging up the phone, Gu Beichen didn''t think about the words that the Dragon owl asked Li Yunze to take, but the eagle''s eyes gradually looked at the ferris wheel In due time, a lift car turned to the bottom and saw Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo sitting inside Chapter 559 I don''t know what Shi Shaoqin is saying to Jian mo. Jian Mo smiles very happily. Especially on the neon flickering Ferris wheel, he was so happy that he was pure... Such a smile and such joy have never been seen by Gu Beichen. Like a child, without impurities. The heart was painfully clenched. It has nothing to do with the harmony between Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo at the moment, his loneliness. But... From his guilt. In those two years, because it was only a marriage under the contract, and he was infatuated with Jian Mo''s body many times, he never paid too much attention to her. No... it''s not that he doesn''t care, but that this woman is too reassuring. She always put herself in a right position and never expected to get anything extra from him After returning with Xiaojie, although their feelings were broken, but for various reasons, he did little to her except to eat with her as much as possible and hug each other to sleep at night. Originally, he thought he could consider everything and give her the best It turned out that until this moment, he didn''t know how wrong he was. In the past, Xiang Nan joked that his own woman should be spoiled by her daughter, so that she would feel the happiest. Yunze immediately retorted that it was nothing to say about happy meat jokes. He and the Dragon owl just listened. But he quit in the South and said that no matter how strong a woman is, she hopes that the man she loves will spoil her. What did he say? A person is absolutely not allowed to treat others in the opposite direction. At that time, he rolled his eyes and said: women are different from men... The stronger a woman is, the more she hopes that the man she loves is more like a child to herself. Because there is only one person in her world who can let her enjoy such rights, she becomes more hopeful Probably... None of them took that seriously at that time? There was something astringent and painful in the nose, and the sour breath pushed it up, but in an instant, there was a touch of wetting across the fundus of the eyes. The ferris wheel has turned again in Gu Beichen''s thoughts. He didn''t even have the courage to see it and turned around quickly. He grabbed the fence with his hand and suddenly used his force. The eagle''s eyes were full of dark breath. He thought that everything was what he thought... However, Mo''er around him did not get complete happiness. Now, although her consciousness is controlled by Shi Shaoqin, she is happy The night wind gently caresses the salty and astringent taste of the sea water. Under the dim yellow street lamp, Gu Beichen''s figure was dragged long, which was more lonely. Morson looked at Gu Beichen''s back from a distance. After a touch of emotion, he glanced at the ferris wheel, then took his mobile phone and sent a text message to Shi Shaoqin. Morson: Gu Beichen left. Shi Shaoqin glanced faintly, and then looked at Jian Mo, who was excited by the night view of the seaside and was leaning on the lift car. "Tomorrow, I''ll take you to sea, okay?" Shi Shaoqin spoke quietly, and his voice was soft beyond his previous disguise. Jian Mo''s body stiffened and suddenly looked at Shi Shaoqin, "I won''t go!" Without thinking, she immediately declined. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes darkened. "Why?" Jane Mo opened her mouth and finally bit her lip, as if she was suffering something "Don''t like it?" Shi Shaoqin asked tentatively. Jane Mo''s face was tangled and distressed. "I don''t know..." she lowered her eyes. "I don''t know why. When she heard about going to sea, she instinctively wanted to resist." Shi Shaoqin felt a strange emotion at the bottom of his eyes. He stretched out his long arm and took Jian Mo into his arms. "If you don''t like it... You won''t go." "Well..." Jane Mo answered skillfully, but just because she was happy to sit on the ferris wheel, there was no more. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes became more and more profound. He had no doubt that Jian Mo would instinctively resist going to sea. Struggling in the sea and almost drowning... Anyone who has felt it once will no longer like contact. "Then take you to a picnic, huh?" Shi Shaoqin asked softly, "you can climb the mountain, and then camp on the mountain at night... You can watch the sunrise the next day." Something cracked on Jian Mo''s face buried in Shi Shaoqin''s chest, but it soon converged. "Well, ok..." Jane didn''t expect it, neither did she. I just resisted going to sea, and now I have a new proposal... I shouldn''t be very excited, but I won''t refuse again, will I? Shi Shaoqin didn''t know what Jane Mo was thinking. However, there was a trace of surprise and resistance on that beautiful face Mingming is just for Gu Beichen to see more, but how does he feel that he is still looking forward to it? ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen was not sad for a long time. He had time to compensate for all his guilt... But he had to wait for Mo''er to return to him. What''s more... A Mo''er without memory is her biggest regret for her life. Only by gradually completing her, his and her life will be complete. Gu Beichen parked in the parking space of smile Hotel and looked at this hotel. From the beginning, it was just a gift from a man to a woman. Now, the global hotel industry has a position that can not be ignored, so he narrowed his eyes slightly. The Dragon owl doesn''t want to go back to the dragon''s house, but he can''t ignore him An ambiguous remark solved his doubts. There''s no blood relationship. There''s still face bumping in the world... And twins don''t necessarily look like each other, do they? Because almost 99% of twins are the same, we subconsciously forget that there are few chance of fraternal twins. Shi juechi and Shi Shaoqin... Not at all! With this direction, it will be easier to check a lot Gu Beichen is the president of emperor group in the end. Even though his influence on the seaside is not as big as that of Los Angeles, it''s OK to check who lives in a hotel. After starting the car, Gu Beichen left the hotel and drove to the police station under his jurisdiction "Officer Zhang, please." Gu Beichen took a look at the list. "Chen, don''t be polite." Gu Beichen left the police station and sat in the car without leaving. He just looked at the names of the people who stayed in the hotel one by one Finally, after locking the scope and name, he called Xie Haitian. Xie Haitian suddenly stood up after receiving Gu Beichen''s call, as if someone were in front of him. His face was full of respect, "Chen, Chen... Chen Shao, how... How can you call me in person?" "I''ll send you the IP later. You can check the access monitoring for nearly five days, especially the men who just checked in from the afternoon to the evening five days ago." Indifferent to Beichen''s orders. "Do you have... Any characteristics?" Xie Haitian asked timidly. Gu Beichen''s eyes narrowed slightly, "no!" Xie Haitian swallowed it and wanted to ask... What to check, but he didn''t dare. "All men..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gradually deepened, "give me the most clear screenshot of your appearance!" Chapter 560 When Gu Beichen returned to his apartment, it was already very late. Jane Mo, as usual, has gone to bed. It''s just different from those days when you can''t sleep if you want to. Recently, seeing Shi Shaoqin''s complacency, Jian Mo''s reaction seems to have slept well. Shi Shaoqin was talking on the phone. Seeing Gu Beichen coming back, his beautiful handsome face didn''t have much expression. He just took back his sight and said faintly: "the ink palace can provide those weapons, but the ink palace doesn''t participate in the affairs between their political parties." The other party seemed to say something. Shi Shaoqin frowned invisibly. "No one can ask the Mo palace to do anything..." he paused. "I''m not interested in supporting anyone in their struggle." Shi Shaoqin has hung up the phone without giving the other party a chance to speak. Turning around, Gu Beichen didn''t care at all. He poured a glass of water to drink, and then walked to the bedroom like an invisible person. "Chen!" Shi Shaoqin stared and shouted. Gu Beichen stopped, turned his head, shallow hooked his lips, spilled a touch of ridicule, "I''m not interested in your business." He walked steadily back into the bedroom without looking back. Shi Shaoqin is conceited. Only when his conceit reaches its peak, his "helplessness" and "anger" will become excited in his eyes. In the bathroom, there was the sound of a shower. Underwater, strong body with clear texture. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at the front slightly, and the ink pupil condensed, thinking about every step in the next step in his mind. The end of the game is to make Mo''er fall in love with him But now, Mo''er controlled by Shi Shaoqin, even if there are things printed in his bones, has not yet been released, and will start again the next day. That''s the big problem. Turn off the shower, Gu Beichen casually wiped it with a towel, wrapped it in a bath towel and left the bathroom. When he saw Shi Shaoqin turning over his bedside books in the room, his eyes immediately filled with disgust. That''s not because Shi Shaoqin flipped his things, but Shi Shaoqin''s eyes. "Tut tut..." Shi Shaoqin''s long and narrow eyes were slightly picked. "Compared with the time when he was young and frivolous, his muscles are obviously better now." Being praised by a man like this, Gu Beichen had no expression on his cold, carved face except for the slightest disgust just now. He calmly took his nightgown and put it on, and said indifferently, "your bad habits still don''t change..." "However, you are not as scared as you were." Shi Shaoqin threw his hand aside. Gu Beichen glanced coldly at Shi Shaoqin, "no one is young and frivolous." In a word, Shi Shaoqin suddenly changed his face. Seeing that Shi Shaoqin didn''t intend to leave, Gu Beichen gently lifted his thin lips and said, "are you going to sleep with me?" "Who wants to sleep with you?" Shi Shaoqin sneered, "I just came in to remind you that time is running out." "You don''t need to remind..." Gu Beichen''s voice was very gentle from beginning to end, without waves. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes darkened, and he only recovered his peace in an instant, and got up and left. What is the purpose of his coming in and what he wants to say to Gu Beichen? Gu Beichen can''t see through except himself. But, definitely not to disgust him Gu Beichen took the cigarette to the terrace, leaned on the railing and looked at the night left by the seaside city. The weakness of human nature, no one plays better than Shi Shaoqin As he was then! He thinks that Shi Shaoqin''s sexual orientation is problematic, and even many people tortured by him think so... So that many people can''t stick to their inner fear and expose more weaknesses in the end. He started, didn''t he? The night passed gradually in Gu Beichen''s thinking As Shi Shaoqin said, he doesn''t have much time. More importantly, he has no confidence in himself No matter how many feelings, they have been sealed up by Shi Shaoqin. Nannan is right. Women are emotional animals. Mo''er is in the space of sealed memory. If Shi Shaoqin gives her everything a woman wants, he can''t make Mo''er fall in love with him again in time. He doesn''t allow this to happen In this way, Mo''er, who wants to wake up, how to face the drift of her feelings? He doesn''t want her because he''s in pain, no! The night passed slowly in silence. The next day, the weather in the seaside city became gloomy. When the genius was hazy and bright, there was a drizzle. Half of the buildings made of cold steel and concrete in the whole city were shrouded in fog. Shi juechi stood on the balcony with his hands in his pockets and looked at the hotel garden in the rain. The beauty was suffocating. When the door bell rang, the glasses man who led the first opened the door. "Your breakfast, sir." It''s a hotel waiter. "Thank you." "I''ll collect it in an hour!" The waiter said politely with a smile and turned away. However, at the moment of turning around, Yu Guang glanced at the stone on the balcony. "Never eat less." The man with glasses put the meal on the small table on the balcony, looked at the drizzle outside, and then turned back to the house. Shi juechi sat down on the rattan chair. "Will Shaoqin come today?" "Qin Shao hasn''t spoken yet." The glasses man replied. Shi juechi frowned slightly, didn''t say anything, and began to eat breakfast. However, when looking at the setting of the dinner plate, he subconsciously stared at the man with glasses in his eyes. Glasses man is nothing different, just eating and watching the computer work. Shi juechi looked back again, looked at the "TV" that was difficult to identify on the plate, and calmly began to eat It''s not that he thinks too much, but the current situation. Gu Beichen can''t find a way to find him and then pass the message. Even if he thinks more, he can''t let go of a little hope. After breakfast, Shi juechi took an umbrella and went for a walk in the garden, followed by the man with glasses. The mobile phone rings. It''s Shi Shaoqin. "The weather is bad today, so don''t walk around." "It doesn''t rain much..." The other side was silent. Shi Shaoqin seemed to compromise, "take Jian Mo to have dinner with you in the evening." Originally I was going camping tonight, but it rained and the mountain must be bigger, so I gave up. "OK..." Shi juechi smiled. "I''ll be in the hotel today. Well, I''ll wait for you to have dinner together in the evening." Feeling Shi juechi''s happiness, Shi Shaoqin''s mouth gradually overflowed with laughter. Shi juexi hung up the phone and went back to the hotel "obediently". After returning, Shi juechi went back to the inner room to have a rest, and the man with glasses didn''t object. He was not afraid that Shi juechi would secretly contact the outside world. He could know all the signals from Shi juechi. But what the man with glasses didn''t think of was... Shi juechi didn''t interrupt the message at all, just ready to receive it. Chapter 561 After Shi Juxi entered the bedroom, he turned on the TV. The TV station shows the local station. If he remembers correctly, he didn''t watch this when he turned it off last night. Shi juechi subconsciously looked at the door leading to the outside. There was no reason why he watched any TV. Someone peeped at him. He took the remote control and wanted to change to another station Sure enough, after the change, it was still the same local station. In other words... The signal source here is controlled by someone. "You can scan the QR code distributed on the screen to interact with us and have the opportunity to win the glacier nine day tour Award..." On TV, the host''s simple and capable voice came at the right time. Shi Juxi frowned slightly, looked at the QR code at the bottom of the screen, took out his mobile phone and tried to scan it. Now that the signal source is controlled, he will not let go of every detail. The sound of "Di" came, and a message appeared in the scanned QR code. "If you allow, leave information and place overlapping!" If you look at such a sentence without beginning or end, you must not know what it means. However, Shi juechi had prepared in his heart, and with the setting of meals in the morning, he immediately understood During lunch, there were many meals and it rained heavily. Shi juechi studied while eating and found the secret of setting the plate. Finally, after eating, he overlapped the tips of chopsticks. He doesn''t need to send any news to the outside world. He just needs to respond to Gu Beichen''s guess, right or wrong. However, such three meals a day to ask questions, the time delay is too long. Shi juechi didn''t expect that in the afternoon, more than a dozen problems suddenly appeared Slightly frowning, he wondered how Gu Beichen wanted him to answer. It was not until dinner that he unconsciously saw the faint eyes of the waiter in the restaurant that he understood. Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo eat happily. Shi juechi is a little like an invisible person from beginning to end Looking at Jian Mo''s care for Shi Shaoqin, the smile on his face and the feeling gradually overflowing from his eyes, his heart was as gloomy as the weather outside at the moment. "Don''t eat, can''t eat..." Jian Mo saw Shi Shaoqin put a dessert in front of him, and his face was slightly bitter. "Didn''t you say you wanted to eat yesterday?" Shi Shaoqin is light. Jane Mo flapped her eyes, "did I say that?" After questioning, she slightly frowned and meditated, "why don''t you have an impression?" "Since you don''t want to eat, don''t eat..." Shi juechi''s soft and moist voice came slowly. "It''s bad for your health to eat too much at night." "Then don''t eat." Shi Shaoqin spoiled the corners of his mouth, and even his eyes were gentle. Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin, and there was a trace of confusion in the bottom of his eyes How does he feel... Shaoqin is a little different? With consideration, just when the waiter came to close, Shi juechi put down his knife and fork at will, but... The directions are outward. If they are together, it is the opposite direction. Gu Beichen got all the information and his face was heavy. What is certain now is that Shi Shaoqin did experiment with Mo''er, and even Mo palace hasn''t achieved anything to remove the effect. What''s more frightening is that Jian Mo has only one day''s memory of most of them, but not Shi Shaoqin! Gu Beichen sat on the sofa and heard the sound of opening the door. He looked deeply at the past When the door was opened, Jian Mo''s face was full of laughter and took Shi Shaoqin in. "You promised me today. Don''t cheat tomorrow." Jane Mo raised her chin proudly. "I''ll remember." "Well, if you remember tomorrow..." Shi Shaoqin spoiled and rubbed Jian Mo''s hand. "It''s not my fault to forget." "I will never forget!" Jane Mo said firmly word by word. Gu Beichen''s eyes were dark and twisted, but in an instant, he had frozen the surrounding air. "Well, you''re back?" Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen. The strangeness at the bottom of his eyes hurt him. "I''ll cut the fruit." Then she went to the kitchen with doubts about Shi Shaoqin''s happiness in agreeing to her. "It seems... The closer the time is, the less chance you have." Shi Shaoqin took off his suit and coat, and a touch of evil crossed the corner of his mouth. Gu Beichen didn''t say anything, but took a murderous look at Shi Shaoqin at the bottom of his eyes. Without waiting for him to say anything, he went to the bedroom "Why, after waiting for a long time, we came back and didn''t eat fruit together?" Shi Shaoqin laughed at the corners of his mouth. Gu Beichen''s cold face was full of haze. "Shaoqin, game is game. If you play yourself in, it won''t be fun." A deep meaning sentence had a cold and fierce breath. Gu Beichen looked back, looked at Shi Shaoqin, and then went back to the bedroom without stopping. Just now, while waiting for them, he thought of one thing Something more terrible than anything! If... In the game, Shi Shaoqin falls in love with Mo''er He didn''t know why he had such an idea, but if such a thing happened, it would be resisted by all the people involved in the whole situation. He must remind Shi Shaoqin! "Well, where is he?" Jian Mo brought out the fruit. Gu Beichen was gone. Only Shi Shaoqin stood there. Shi Shaoqin''s uncertain look on his face recovered at the moment he turned around. "He went to bed." Jane Mo tilted her mouth and looked at the fruit in her hand. She was a little lost. "I went to bed too..." Jane Mo said stuffy, put the fruit on the table and walked to the bedroom. "Mo''er..." Shi Shaoqin called Jian Mo and saw her look at him suspiciously. Then she said slowly with deep eyes, "shall I take you out of here?" He asked very gently and slowly... But his sight was very heavy. He looked at Jian Mo very deeply, so that she would not be let go of any emotion. Jane Mo frowned slowly, "why do you want to leave here?" "Travel, or settle in a more comfortable place..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was still gentle. Jane Mo''s eyebrows eased a little. "You decide. Anyway, I''ll be where you are..." she smiled at the corner of her mouth, "you said." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes softened. He looked at the smile on Jian Mo''s face and lost his mind for a few seconds. "Go to sleep..." Shi Shaoqin said with a smile. "Good night!" "Good night..." Jane Mo turned back to the bedroom with a smile. At the moment of closing the door, all the expressions on her face disintegrated in an instant The heart is "plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop, plop. At that moment, she seemed to have died once Dragging her heavy body, Jane Mo went to the dressing table and sat down. Looking at herself in the mirror, she stared, strange and familiar She didn''t know why she acted calmly in front of Shi Shaoqin and Gu Beichen, but it seemed as if she had done so before How can she think of the past? Shao Shi and Gu Beichen, who is true to her? Chapter 562 As a coastal city, rain is still common in this place. The previous day was just a drizzle. After a night, it turned into heavy rain. The weather was even darker, as if it were going to be pressed down. Jane Mo got up a little dull early in the morning, but also a little listless. "What''s the matter?" Shi Shaoqin asked softly. Jane Mo shook her head at the corner of her mouth and subconsciously looked out of the window Shi Shaoqin looked sideways. The raindrops were "crackling" on the window. It was dawn in the morning, but it looked as if it was going to night. The whole sky was gray. "I''ll take you when the weather gets better, huh?" Shi Shaoqin smiled and asked. Jane Mo''s eyes lit up immediately, and she was completely happy, "you said, don''t cheat." "No..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice became softer and softer. Even the habitual smile at the corners of his mouth slowed down unconsciously. When Gu Beichen came out, he saw such a scene At that moment, his eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and his ink pupil became dark and bottomless. Feeling the burning sight, Jian Mo subconsciously looked away... After looking up at Beichen, the smile at the corners of his mouth also became warm. "Are you going out?" Asked Jane mo. Because Gu Beichen lives here every day, Jian Mo doesn''t remember him just at the beginning. She asks Shi Shaoqin every morning. Shi Shaoqin seemed to take this for granted. "Yes." Even though Gu Beichen''s heart was blocked badly, he always softened unconsciously in the face of Jian mo. Jane Mo looked at the rain outside. "It''s raining hard!" "Drive, don''t get in the way." Gu Beichen said shallowly. Jane Mo seemed to suddenly think of something and suddenly realized on her face Gu Beichen glanced at Shi Shaoqin and said, "I''ll come back for lunch." "Well, OK, I''ll prepare you." Jane Mo''s happy decision. Recently, she has become more and more dependent on Shi Shaoqin. She doesn''t want to be close to Gu Beichen subconsciously... However, obviously, there is a difference between accepting him and Shi juechi. Gu Beichen looked indifferent and calm in the depths of his eyes, but there were waves surging up. The car, shuttling through the heavy rain, splashed the water in the puddles on the ground. ''squeak - '' Suddenly, Gu Beichen''s steering wheel suddenly turned slightly and the car stopped at the roadside. The eagle''s eyes are like a torch, which is as sharp as shooting through the windshield and pulling away the rain and fog. The steering wheel was clenched more tightly Care is chaos! Even if he told himself, no, No. But he still ignored the details Mo''er doesn''t just remember Shi Shaoqin, at least not these days! Gu Beichen''s heart was trembling when he thought that he would have such an idea... Don''t ask him why, he just looked at Mo''er at that time, that''s all. The wiper sweeps back and forth to separate the rain, and then the rain blurs the line of sight again. Over and over again, it seemed to brush away the fog in Gu Beichen''s mind layer by layer, pointing directly to his heart I figured it out, but my heart began to lock up. Mo''er''s boldness made Gu Beichen''s breathing heavy No one knows better than him what kind of means Shi Shaoqin has. If one is not careful, it is not hopeless, but life is worse than death. Gu Beichen closed his eyes and tried to calm his thoughts Mo''er can''t show his feet from him now. The eagle''s eyes opened, and the worry, panic and fear that had just been gathered in them. Yes, it''s indifference under silence. ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin didn''t accompany Jian Mo for a while, so he was called away by a phone call from Mosen. When he left, his breath was obviously dark. He simply told Jian Mo not to go out of the door in such a heavy rain, so he left in a hurry Jane Mo holds the cup with both hands, which is the freshly squeezed juice. She drank one mouthful at a time. Deep in her eyes, she was quiet under reflection. She still can''t remember the past things, but one thing, most of her recent things will not be forgotten Is it because Shao Shi didn''t drink the water she gave her, or because she had any obsession in her heart? Jane Mo couldn''t figure it out and didn''t dare to think too much. She was afraid to show her flaws At noon, Jian Mo made dumplings and some side dishes. She just took the cooked dumplings out of the kitchen and saw Gu Beichen just push the door in "Just right!" Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen with pure excitement in her eyes. At that moment, Gu Beichen thought he was wrong in the morning... Jian Mo didn''t remember anything at all. "Where is he?" Gu Beichen swept around and asked faintly. Recently, Shi shaoqinwei didn''t let him get along with Mo''er alone, but he looked very tight. "Out..." Jane Mo didn''t think so. "Oh?" Gu Beichen''s eyes fell at a distance and asked in a slightly coagulated voice, "he''s taking you with him for everything these days. How can he leave you at home alone today?" Besides, Shi Shaoqin knew he was coming back at noon. Jane Mo''s face was a little confused. It wasn''t pretend. At least... In Gu Beichen''s eyes, it''s not pretend. "Maybe..." Jane Mo listened to the sound of the rain pattering on the window and guessed, "because you''re coming back for dinner, or is it raining?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deep, and his temples twitched uncontrollably. "Come and eat. It won''t wait until it gets cold." Jane Mo turned and put the dumplings on the table. Although Jane Mo doesn''t remember the past, her cooking hasn''t regressed at all. It''s delicious. When you eat it in Gu Beichen''s mouth, you don''t know how to eat it Gu Beichen tentatively asked Jian Mo some questions, "didn''t he promise you to do something yesterday?" "Well, he said he was taking me to Los Angeles!" Jane Mo has a serious eye. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes coagulated, "Los Angeles?" "Yes!" "How can you think of going there?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo was stunned "I don''t know..." Jane thought for a while and didn''t remember why she went there. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s swallow, and there was some uncertainty on his cold face. He tentatively asked a few more questions in an attempt to prove whether Jian Mo was really what he thought. The recent "amnesia" was just a disguise, just as in those years, she loved him and he didn''t know. He what Shi Shaoqin knows from the monitoring. Shi Shaoqin won''t have the patience to look at it frame by frame. Mosen mostly selects the key points to report to him. However... Morson knew very well that what he said to him by the elevator that day was not alarmist. But Gu Beichen didn''t think of it at the moment Sometimes things in the world are like this, not playing cards according to common sense. Since Gu Beichen entered the house, Shi Shaoqin has been sitting in front of the monito Chapter 563 Morson stood behind and looked at the monitor as well. Occasionally, he would secretly glance at Shi Shaoqin''s reaction Originally, he went to solve the problem of the arms sold in the morning. He thought that it was past noon, but he didn''t expect to solve it quickly. After Qin Shao came back, he didn''t go upstairs. Instead, he kept looking at the monitor after he got here. At first, Mosen was surprised. When Gu Beichen came back, he began to feel nervous Qin Shao, shouldn''t you find anything? If so, I''m afraid he can''t stand here like this However, Mosen couldn''t figure out how Shi Shaoqin could watch the surveillance himself? Shi Shaoqin shook the red wine glass in his hand leisurely, and the scarlet liquid remained behind the glass wall and fell into the bottom and became one. When Gu Beichen came back, he had dinner, and after eating, Jian Mo went to take a nap... He saw all the subtle changes in their expressions! It seems that Chen also suspects that Jian Mo has not forgotten the recent events. Shi Shaoqin''s mouth gradually overflowed. If there was a smile like nothing, it was cold. Jane Mo''s performance these days is so flawless that he began to doubt To give her hechen a chance is to see if she will show something in his absence. Gu Beichen''s question is obscure, but Jian Mo''s smart Shi Shaoqin has seen it... He doesn''t understand Gu Beichen''s question. It''s impossible to find out what he wants to know. However, Jane Mo''s performance Shi Shaoqin let go of his overlapping legs and got up, leaning his hand holding the wine glass to one side... Mosen immediately stepped forward and took it. "Qin Shao?" Morson held his breath and asked. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window and looked at the rain outside with his hands. His narrow eyes narrowed gradually After a long time, I heard him say slowly: "among the several tests carried out at the same time, it seems that Jane Mo has the most conditions here..." "She has an obsession with Gu Beichen, not to mention..." Mosen hesitated and said in the end, "besides, Gu Beichen is here." Shi Shaoqin slowly opened his eyes, and a thin smile overflowed from his deep eyes Mosen didn''t see the smile, but because he had been with Shi Shaoqin for a long time, but the slight change of the surrounding air, his heart had already raised to his throat. "Can they affect each other..." Shi Shaoqin''s words slowly suffocated, "... It''s still unknown!" ¡­¡­ When Jane entered the bedroom, she didn''t have any pajamas. She just covered her chest with her heart beating like a drum and leaned on the door without moving. In the other hand, something was tightly clenched. It was about to be clenched and sweating, so it slightly loosened the lower nerve. Jane Mo breathed out and took a big breath, then picked up the paper in her hand and unfolded it It''s a QR code! QR code again! After that QR code, Jane Mo knew that Gu Beichen''s painting was very powerful... But she didn''t have a mobile phone. How should she scan it? Jane Mo put things in her pocket. Now she can only find a chance Whether Gu Beichen or Shao Shi, she must find out what happened before. Jane Mo lay in bed for a nap, closed her eyes and thought about what had just happened at the table Gu Beichen should know that she knows things, although he doesn''t know why he knows. Shao Shi didn''t find her pretending these days, did she? But his words were testing her as if he didn''t know. Why? There are only two of them. Even if they expose her or expose her flaws, it''s meaningless in front of him... Why play? Jane Mo slowly opened her eyes and an idea crossed her. Surveillance in the living room? For himself, Jane Mo''s heart suddenly lifted Shi Shaoqin came back in the afternoon. It rained less then. He said he would take Jian Mo to the seaside restaurant for dinner. Jane Mo has some inexplicable fear of the sea, but she doesn''t refuse to go to sea. Under the drizzle, blowing the sea breeze, eating seafood, have a different taste. The whole restaurant was wrapped by Shi Shaoqin. When Shi juechi sat down, he found that he was looking in a direction He looked down and saw a man sitting in a seaside restaurant with similar pattern in the distance, looking over here. Slightly frowned, "you tell him we''re having dinner here today?" "Don''t say..." Shi Shaoqin said slowly with a smile, "he also knows." Shi juechi frowned slightly. At this distance, he can only see the outline. In the drizzle, if he wants to see people clearly, he must take a telescope. But obviously, Shaoqin will not give Gu Beichen this opportunity. He stared. "I don''t want him to know what I look like. There are many ways. Why do I have to sit here?" "Right in front of you, but you can''t catch anything... That''s interesting!" For Shi Shaoqin''s playful psychology, Shi juechi was noncommittal, just slightly calm Gu Beichen seems to have left a message to her through TV these two days, but Shaoqin didn''t find it at all. It''s just that he wants to deliver the message, but it''s impossible What can I do to tell Gu Beichen that Jane Mo is pregnant? Shi juechi was absent-minded. In Shi Shaoqin''s opinion, he thought he wanted to meet Gu Beichen, but he didn''t pay much attention. When he gathered his mind, he saw that he was shelling shrimp for Jane Mo himself. He was stunned. "I still remember when you and Gu Beichen were touching shrimp on the beach and then fighting..." Jian Mo looked at Shi juechi curiously. Shi Shaoqin kept moving on his hands, but a cold smile overflowed from the corners of his mouth. Shi juechi didn''t seem to feel the sudden stiffness of the atmosphere, and continued: "at that time, I thought you were quite childish. I didn''t think you could peel shrimp now. I just didn''t know Gu Beichen..." "Your hair is messy. Go and clean it up." Shi Shaoqin''s soft voice came, which was indisputable. Jian Mo was curious, but when he looked at Shang Shi Shaoqin''s line of sight, he smiled at the corner of his mouth, nodded a little stuffy and left "What are you trying to make her think?" Shi Shaoqin asked coldly after Jian Mo left. Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin coldly. "Shaoqin, what can I remind her of?" A rhetorical question made Shi Shaoqin narrow his eyes, but he didn''t speak any more. The sea breeze is gentle and salty. The rolling waves seem to hit people''s hearts and make their breathing heavy. "Hello..." Jian Mo saw a middle-aged aunt cleaning in the bathroom. After looking outside, she came forward and lowered her voice slightly. "Can you lend me your mobile phone?" Cleaning aunt immediately looked at Jane Mo with confused eyes. "I, I''ll use it by your side." Jian Mo felt the resistance of the other party and hurriedly said. The cleaning aunt saw that Jane Mo was wearing high-grade clothes. She should have dinner. After thinking about it, he took out his mobile phone, which was worthless. "Thank you!" Jane Mo thanked, hurriedly took out the QR code and scanned it with her mobile phone. The voice of "Di" crossed, and a sentence appeared on the mobile phone A word she wants! Chapter 564 Jane Mo looked at the information on her mobile phone and said that if she wanted it, it was better to solve her doubts and prove something "The living room is monitored! Going back to Los Angeles may be more useful for you to remember!" Jane Mo looked at the QR code information and her heart beat like a drum. At noon, she guessed that there might be monitoring in the living room, which was confirmed by Gu Beichen. How did he think she would doubt? I feel that he wants to know her very well "Have you finished, miss?" The cleaning aunt saw that Jane Mo was strange and couldn''t help asking. Jane Mo hurried back to her senses and returned the QR code information. After confirming that it was not saved, she returned the mobile phone to her aunt. "Thank you." Jian Mo thanked her gratefully. Seeing that Aunt cleaning looked at her suspiciously and shook her head and left, she hurriedly tore the QR code in her hand into the toilet and washed it clean. She didn''t know why she was so careful, just by instinct. ¡­¡­ "People also saw it. Go back to Mo Palace at night!" Shi Shaoqin''s words are indisputable and firm. Shi Jue Chi frowned invisibly. "Are you so eager for me to go?" Shi Shaoqin looked at Shi Jue Chi, "otherwise?" "Since you think I won''t remind Mo Mo of anything, why are you in a hurry to let me go?" Shi juechi did not answer the rhetorical question. Shi Shaoqin smiled, very light, not alienated, but proudly, "Jue Chi, what message do you want to send to Chen?" Shi Jue Chi gently frowned, "what do you mean?" "You were told that you didn''t want to pass anything to Chen..." the smile around Shi Shaoqin''s mouth gradually disappeared. Then, a cold breath slowly climbed up to the beautiful Junyan, "do you remember that year?" A gentle word gave Shi juechi a sudden shock. "He has suffered a lot because of your piece of bread." Shi Shaoqin slowly opened his mouth and his sight fell on Gu Beichen in the distance. The drizzle is hazy, the waves are beating the beach, and the air becomes stiff in the emotional scene. Shi juechi clenched his hand, "Shaoqin, this time..." his temples moved slightly, and his eyes were filled with complex emotions, "... You never thought that I was really not just because of Gu Beichen?" Even now, Shaoqin thinks that what he said about falling in love with Jian Mo is false, right? After all... From the beginning, even if they don''t know each other, they all know that he won''t love and don''t want to live up to his other half. But when love comes, it doesn''t make sense, does it? Even the most ruthless Shaoqin in the world, isn''t he a little moved now? When Jane went out of the restaurant, the atmosphere was stiff. She looked at Shi Juxi suspiciously and looked at Shi Shaoqin, "what''s the matter?" Jane Mo frowned. "It''s all right..." Shi Shaoqin watched Jian Mo''s eyes soften, and the atmosphere condensed in the air seemed to ease down at that moment. "I have something else to do. Let''s go first." Shi juechi was not as generous as Shi Shaoqin. He looked at Jian Mo and got up immediately. Jane Mo frowned again, as if she didn''t understand Shi juechi''s behavior. When Shi juechi passed Jian Mo, he glanced at her. When their eyes were right, he felt sad for a moment. Watching Shi Jue Chi leave, Jian Mo asked Shi Shaoqin in doubt, "I don''t know why... I seem to be familiar with that eye just now." "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin looked at Shi juechi, who was leaving. Jane Mo hung her eyes and thought for a while, and finally shook her head. "I can''t remember, just as he always looked at me like this before." Shi Shaoqin didn''t ask much. He just smiled and put the peeled shrimp on a simple foam plate, "eat." Under the guidance of Shi Shaoqin, Jian Mo nodded with a smile, as if she had forgotten Shi Juxi. Shi juechi didn''t ask the man with glasses to give him an umbrella. He left the seaside restaurant with a touch of anger. However, when passing Gu Beichen''s restaurant, he glanced at it with a look of helpless worry. "Never less, you said... How many twins are not like in this world?" The man with glasses asked coldly. Shi juechi glanced at him and didn''t speak. He just looked back and took the magazine aside and flipped it. Unlike the twins, there are not many, but they are facing Gu Beichen. Find the information left from the details... Gu Beichen was trained in the Mo palace for three months. Up to now, there is only one Gu Beichen who can leave a scar on awei''s face. Shaoqin didn''t let go of Gu Beichen for many reasons. Isn''t it because he can find his own shadow from him. People can''t catch their own shadow, but the more they can''t catch it, the more they want to catch it. Gu Beichen looked at the car leaving. After the eagle''s eyes were deep, he looked away at Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo who were eating in the distance. He may not come today, but if he knows that Shi Juxi is coming, Shi Shaoqin will doubt it. The mobile phone ''buzzing'' vibrated on the table. Gu Beichen took back his sight indifferently, looked at the call and answered, "huh?" "Chen Shao, all the foundation of the second master abroad has been dug out." On the phone, Xiao Jing heard some excited voices. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed, "I don''t want to see him turn over once." "Necessary." Xiao Jing raised his eyebrows. "I''ve started to do it. This time... The second master will die." Gu Beichen tilted his head and raised his eyes. The sky was dark and wanted to be pressed down. "I want the shares in his hand and give it... I''ll give him a peaceful old age." "That''s too cheap for him..." Xiao Jing said, "the second master has no way out now. The emperor''s shares will be thrown out sooner or later." "When the dog is anxious, he will jump off the wall, not to mention..." Gu Beichen paused and took back his sight. "Grandma always owes his parents a favor." Xiao Jing listened and stopped talking. After a long time, he replied stiffly. "How''s the young lady now?" Xiao Jing asked again. "The situation is not optimistic, but it has not reached a dead end." Xiao Jing frowned, "that..." Gu Beichen sighed and interrupted Xiao Jing''s question, "arrange for me to return to Los Angeles in recent days." "Huh?" Xiao Jing was puzzled. "What about the young lady?" "I''ll go with Shi Shaoqin." Gu Beichen answered lightly. Xiao Jing''s face suddenly became heavy. "What does Shi Shaoqin mean? Los Angeles is our base camp, so he''s not afraid to tie his hands and feet?" The sarcastic words showed the energy provoked. Xiao Jing ''hum'' and said, "I''ll arrange it first." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, hung up the phone, got up to check out and left the restaurant. Shi Shaoqin wants to take Mo''er back to Los Angeles. According to his temperament, I''m afraid it''s impossible not to embarrass him. Now... I can only hope that Mo''er''s play can continue. Chapter 565 Gu Beichen drove through the rainy beach. Instead of going back to his apartment, he drove to Longxiao''s villa Suddenly, Gu Beichen looked at the two people tearing on the sidewalk in front, frowned slightly, and pulled over to stop the car. He didn''t get out of the car. He just looked at the man and woman tearing. Finally, his eyes fell on the umbrella lying aside. After a while, he opened the door and got out of the car. "You let go of me..." warm tried to struggle away, looking at the man holding him and yelling. "Let go of you, how can I let go of you?" The man tightly imprisoned warmth, "warmth, you come with me!" With that, he wanted to drag the warmth away. Although it was raining, there were still a lot of pedestrians on the road. Everyone was watching, but no one came forward to ask or persuade... They thought there was a quarrel between the little lovers. Warmth has been tangled with men and has no strength. She even looked at him in despair in some helplessness. The corner of her mouth smiled coldly, "follow you?" She sneered, "if you were so affectionate when you took me as a chess piece, maybe I would turn back. But now... You dream!" "I dream?" The man also sneered, "then I''ll see if I''m really dreaming." Then, despite the warm resistance, the man took her by the wrist and dragged her to leave. "She doesn''t want to go with you..." The voice, light but with a heavy and violent breath, came slowly. The man subconsciously stopped and looked back... He wanted to see who didn''t have eyes. When I saw Gu Beichen, I felt a touch of complexity at the bottom of my eyes and raised hope. "Honey, you''re here at last..." warm rode the man''s stunned for a moment, threw him away and hurried to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen coldly looked at the warmth as if he was "familiar" and closed his arm, frowned secretly, and his eyes fell on the man. "Warm, are you cheap?" The man stared. "You''re not with me because there are one man after another around you, aren''t you? I''m your spare tire, aren''t I?" Warm really wants to give him the most shameless award in the world. He confuses right and wrong. If he thinks he is second, it is estimated that no one dares to say he is first. "She, it''s not your turn to arrange." In Gu Beichen''s voice, there was a faint danger, "don''t pester her. This is advice and advice for you." "You..." the man wanted to say something, but when he looked up at Gu Beichen''s eyes that seemed to overflow from hell, he stubbornly swallowed his words to his mouth. Gu Beichen coldly converged his eyes and ignored the man. He just turned around with warmth and walked to the car. Now he was in the street. He felt warm and didn''t want to entangle more. Besides, this man needs to be solved, and it''s not his turn When I got on the bus, the warm momentum immediately faded down. She leaned against the door, looking tired. "Where are you going? I''ll take you there." Gu Beichen opened his mouth lightly and didn''t want to know anything at all. "Why are you here?" Warmth does not answer rhetorical questions. Gu Beichen looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror. "I''m going to go to the villa to find some information." "Then go back to the villa." Unable to warm your mouth. Gu Beichen didn''t speak any more. He just started the car and drove to the villa When he arrived at the villa, Gu Beichen and warmth felt an unusual breath in the air. Gu Beichen glanced at the warmth, "look, boss Lailong is back." His face was warm and calm, and there was no embarrassment caused by the rain. "I came back deliberately now." "I don''t know..." Gu Beichen said faintly and took the lead in stepping into the villa. Warmth did not move, but slowly opened his mouth: "what are you anxious to explain? I brought it back to the villa myself." Gu Beichen ignored the voice behind him and didn''t hesitate. After entering the villa, he went to the study The problem between Dragon owl and warmth is different from that between him and Jane mo. he doesn''t want to intervene. ¡­¡­ Knowing that the living room is monitored, Jane Mo doesn''t want to take it with her in the living room. However, if you are too deliberate and afraid of being known... You can only endure the churning thoughts in your heart. As usual, when you should be in the living room, you will still be in the living room. The rain kept falling, big and small, which made people feel depressed. "Do you want to go to the bookstore?" After calling, Shi Shaoqin came in from the balcony and saw Jian Mo holding a book in his hand. That''s the design book Gu Beichen bought her before. She reads it every day recently... Turn it from the beginning every day! As soon as she heard that she could go out, Jane Mo nodded hurriedly, and her eyes were bright. As long as she doesn''t stay in the living room, it''s the best for her at the moment. Seeing her so excited, Shi Shaoqin didn''t think much. He just thought she was going to buy books. After arriving at the bookstore, Jane Mo just didn''t want to stay in the living room from the beginning and became really excited After a while, I had picked several books on architectural design. Seeing that it was inconvenient for her to see, Shi Shaoqin took the hand in her hand and motioned her to continue to pick... In that way, as gentle as you want. There are few people in the bookstore, only a few staff. Jane Mo didn''t think much. She just thought it was raining, so no one Morson stood far away. He looked at Shi Shaoqin holding the book picked by Jian Mo, and his eyes were deep. I don''t know why, he always felt as if something was different, but he couldn''t tell where it was Maybe he thought too much! After all, Qin Shao is interested in people. In order to achieve his goal, he often does something he can''t understand. The rain in the seaside city is particularly ecstatic, but the sun shines in Los Angeles. The midsummer sun seems to roast people, wantonly emitting its heat. In the laboratory of Huakang hospital, the cold air reverberates in the space, isolating the heat flow outside. Li Yunze sat in front of the table full of bottles and cans. He added something to it and put the smear into the instrument. He looked very serious. A doctor came in to test things. He was surprised to see that Li Yunze was still there, but he didn''t bother. Just slightly frowned and went to the other side... Li Shao, what are you studying from last night to now. The sound of "Di" came, Li Yunze looked a little nervous, his Adam''s apple rolled down, and then looked at the small display screen of the instrument His whole eyes lit up when he saw the data displayed above. Even before he could confirm again, he hurriedly took out his mobile phone and called Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen is talking to Long Xiao in his study. He picks up his mobile phone and looks at it. "It''s Yunze." The Dragon owl didn''t speak, but waited indifferently. Gu Beichen picked it up and put it in his ear, "Yunze?" "Beichen, Beichen, I have made a breakthrough." Inside came Li Yunze''s excited voice, "I know what can control silence, and it can gradually dissolve when it doesn''t spread!" Chapter 566 Gu Beichen immediately sat up straight, and the eagle''s eyes suddenly gathered light, "what are you talking about?" Calm and nervous, the voice slowly overflowed. He confirmed that he was afraid he heard wrong. Li Yunze was so excited that he couldn''t help himself. Even with a touch of arrogance at the bottom of his eyes, he said, "I''ve worked out a way to control silence... Although it hasn''t been clinically verified, I''m 80% sure." Gu Beichen grew up with Li Yunze and knows this man very well A genius from a medical family, because of his childhood ability and social status, Li Yunze is not as peaceful and evil as he showed among his friends. To some extent, he is very proud. It is such a character that Gu Beichen heard him say that 80% of them have no element of boasting. "What can I do?" Gu Beichen asked. Now Mo''er''s thoughts are controlled. The most important thing is because of silence If it can be removed or the efficacy is controlled, it is the best. Now he is not only worried about Mo''er''s body, but also worried about acting in front of Shi Shaoqin. If one accidentally reveals a flaw, the abnormal man knows what abnormal means he will use if he is fooled. It is impossible to predict. "The efficacy of silence depends on the medicine dispensed, and finally increases the dose, so it will control people''s emotions and disrupt people''s memory hubs..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "Just say the result directly." Li Yunze''s words were still in his mouth. Suddenly, Gu Beichen interrupted and choked. The excitement on his face obviously showed dissatisfaction. However, considering the urgency of friends at the moment, I don''t care. "I found the way by accident..." Li Yunze said, his eyes suddenly darkened, but he quickly covered up the past. "The structure of men and women is different, and silence has a fatal defect, that is, when the female body produces progesterone hormone, the efficacy of silence will slowly reduce..." Gu Beichen listened quietly without interrupting Li Yunze. At last, the cold and carved face was gradually shrouded in haze, and even the ink pupil was dark, as if there was no light. The Dragon owl was sitting opposite. The steel lighter clanged across. When a cigarette was lit, it also broke the air condensed by Gu Beichen. "You mean..." Gu Beichen''s voice slowly overflowed his thin lips, but he didn''t say the second half of a sentence. Li Yunze was less excited, and his face was also a little heavy. "In short, it''s to make Jian Mo pregnant..." Gu Beichen''s eyes became more and more familiar. He was silent. After a long time, he gritted his teeth and asked, "what do you think of using children to exchange Jane foam?" Li Yunze made a stem in his mouth, rolled his Adam''s apple and didn''t speak. To put it bluntly, one life for another Exchange the child''s life for Jian Mo''s life. Whether it''s Beichen or Jian mo... I''m afraid there''s no way to face this situation? Besides... There should still be a way for Shi Shaoqin to get rid of silence. But now he has only studied that progesterone hormone can be contained, not only one way. "Is there no way for outside intervention?" Gu Beichen pondered for a while before asking. Gu Beichen''s meaning, Li Yunze understood, "no..." he said heavily, "I tested the probability test. The effect of external injection of progesterone hormone will not be good. Moreover, because of the existence of silence, it may also have side effects." Gu Beichen was silent again Using children to treat diseases is not what he thought, let alone what Mo''er thought. If Mo''er is sober, he will oppose it, and more pain is one of them Second, in this situation, should he use strong to Mo''er? After hanging up the phone, Gu Beichen''s face has gradually calmed down "What does Yunze say?" The Dragon owl spoke faintly and twisted out the smoke in the ashtray. Gu Beichen repeated Li Yunze''s words briefly and comprehensively. At last, he sighed deeply. "What are you going to do?" Asked the Dragon owl. Gu Beichen looked at the Dragon owl and didn''t answer Long Xiao got up, went to the wine cabinet, took the wine and two cups, and said indifferently: "I don''t think Shi Shaoqin knows Yunze''s way..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen frowned suspiciously. The Dragon owl took a sip of red wine, went to the window, looked at the drizzle under the night light with one hand and slowly opened his mouth: "Shi Shaoqin is a conceited man. He doesn''t have a woman he can see, so he won''t spend much time studying women..." He turned and looked at Gu Beichen with deep eyes. "He shouldn''t know about progesterone hormone." "Forced Mo''er, I don''t want to." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips, "how can Mo''er, who gave birth to Xiaojie, face it with a child?" The Dragon owl didn''t speak. He asked. He just wanted to see what Gu Beichen thought. In fact, Beichen knows his nature. I hope I can bear everything best. If I force Jane Mo or change her with a child, he probably would rather Jane MO forget him because of silence It rained for several days in Haibin city. The relationship between Jian Mo, Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin seemed to be day after day, and there was no big progress, but there was no small accident. The only thing that makes Gu Beichen happy is that Jian Mo finally remembers his existence because of many days of contact. "Drink the water, and then you can go to the airport..." Shi Shaoqin slowly handed Jian mo the transparent cup filled with water. Jian Mo suddenly ''clattered'' in his heart, slightly invisible, and looked up at Shi Shaoqin, "I don''t want to drink water now..." There was a touch of pettiness and anger in her voice, and even the corners of her mouth were slightly tilted, with some small discomfort overflowing. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo and his narrow eyes narrowed slightly For a moment, because of the coquetry in Jane Mo''s voice, he wanted to take the water away. Since when can others "control" his emotions? Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were deep, but he immediately recovered his calm. "There''s a way to the airport, and there''s no water in the car... Good." Jian Mo''s heart strongly resisted. After vomiting the cup of water last time, Shaoshi also gave her a drink in the later stage, but she still dealt with it in the same way. I haven''t forgotten the recent events these days. It must be related to the water he gave her. However, when she was going to the airport, she drank the water and couldn''t deal with it in time Jane Mo''s mind turned a hundred times, and her hand gently pinched her skirt. Drink... Has her recent efforts been in vain again? But if you don''t drink, Shao Shi will doubt Jane Mo''s face showed a little reluctance, but she had thought about all kinds of things in her heart. "Yes." Jane Mo answered softly and reached for the water Just, looking at the sight of the water cup, I have the fear of resisting, and I''m about to overflow uncontrollably Chapter 567 Shi Shaoqin''s eyes kept looking at Jian mo. if it wasn''t for the height gap between each other, she would be able to see the uncontrollable emotion of looking at the water cup from the bottom of her eyes. Just as the tip of Jian Mo''s finger just touched the water cup, Shi Shaoqin suddenly lightened his hand. Jian Mo was obviously stunned and looked aside subconsciously Seeing Gu Beichen put the water cup on the table indifferently, he looked at Shi Shaoqin coldly and said, "she doesn''t want to drink water. What does she have to drink?" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and looked at Gu Beichen with a smile. Gu Beichen didn''t avoid it either, but with a cold face, "you''re not good enough to her..." In a word, Jian Mo frowned and Shi Shaoqin''s smile deepened. "Shaoshi is very kind to me..." Jian Mo retorted and explained very seriously. "He''s afraid I''ll drink water on the way. There''s no warm water." "Really?" Gu Beichen said softly and sneered, "it''s almost an hour from here to the airport. If you''re really thirsty, won''t you have it?" Jane was stunned, as if she thought it was reasonable. Shi Shaoqin always smiled at the corners of his mouth, and slowly opened his mouth with deep vision: "also..." Then, his smile deepened a little, "Mo''er, go and get your salute." "Oh..." Jian Mo answered, subconsciously listening to Shi Shaoqin, and went to the bedroom to get his little backpack. When Jian Mo left, Shi Shaoqin stepped forward and lowered his voice to a level that only each other could hear clearly. "Are you thinking... Can Jian mo use less medicine and think more about the starting point when he comes to the familiar city of Los Angeles?" Gu Beichen''s cold face was so indifferent. In fact, in his heart, he wanted Mo''er to drink. Because he was not sure whether mor would forget that he was still acting because he was too excited after he arrived in Los Angeles With a contradictory heart, the three of them went to the airport. After Gu Beichen left the Mo palace, he never thought about what he would do by plane with Shi Shaoqin one day. Gu Beichen''s heart was heavy when he set foot on the land of Los Angeles again after more than two hours of flight. "It''s Los Angeles," Shi Shaoqin said with a smile, looking at Gu Beichen. "You won''t... Still live with us?" On the plane, Jian Mo already knew that Gu Beichen was from Los Angeles. It''s not surprising that Shi Shaoqin asked. "Shao Shi said, we will play here for a few days..." Jian Mo said excitedly, "will you come with us?" "You want me to be with you?" Gu Beichen asked greedily. Jane Mo was a little strange about his rhetorical question, "you must be very familiar when you arrive at your place..." Gu Beichen''s eyes showed a faint forbearance. They all said that only the lies that deceive themselves can deceive the people around you who are most familiar with you. Mo''er''s performance at the moment... Is it because he was too worried before, or because he just slept on the plane, because Shi Shaoqin let her drink "water" at the airport and forgot what? "Call me in the evening..." Gu Beichen deliberately said, "I''ll take you to a place you will like." "Good!" Jane Mo''s eyes lit up immediately, but she thought of something and frowned, "I don''t seem to have a cell phone?" He asked her and looked at her. Shi Shaoqin smiled softly at the corners of his mouth. Looking at Jian Mo''s vacant appearance, he slowly opened his mouth: "the previous one fell into the pool and hasn''t bought yet." Jian Mo tilted his head slightly, as if thinking about Shi Shaoqin''s words. However, Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were already facing Gu Beichen... The smile at the bottom of his eyes was full of ridicule. "Wait a minute, let Mosen buy it for you and send it to you..." Shi Shaoqin slowly opened his mouth and clearly said it to Jian Mo, but his sight never left Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen coldly took back his sight, said hello to Jian Mo, and went to the car where Xiao Jing was standing Even if Shi Shaoqin gave Jian Mo a mobile phone, he must have controlled the signal, so he didn''t worry. However, he hopes Mo''er has a mobile phone, but not to contact Xiao Jing opened the door for Gu Beichen. When he went in, he closed the door. At the same time, he looked at Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo, and then bypassed the front of the car to the driver''s seat. "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing is a little stuffy. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo who was about to get on the bus from the position of the reversing mirror, "go to Huakang." "Yes." Xiao Jing answered, started the car and drove to Huakang hospital. The high temperature in Los Angeles continues these days. The heat waves in the air hit one after another, and the roasted pedestrians were listless one by one. After entering the urban area, Gu Beichen''s car was blocked at the intersection of the necessary section to Huakang. It seemed that there was an accident in front of him, and the traffic police were arranging to dredge it. The air conditioning in the car makes the people in the car unable to feel the heat flow outside. However, waiting has become a torment at the moment. Jian Mo''s current situation, he must know it face to face with Yunze In today''s situation, it is almost impossible to want it completely. It can only minimize the damage to Mo''er... This is the only thing he can do. The car in front finally made a movement. Xiao Jing started the car and moved forward at the speed of a snail Just as the car turned and was about to go to Huakang street, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone rang. Seeing Li Yunze, Gu Beichen picked it up and said, "we''ll be there in five minutes." "I have something to deal with. I''ll be back in an hour..." Li Yunze''s anxious voice came from his mobile phone. "Wait for me in my office." Before Gu Beichen spoke, Li Yunze had hung up the phone. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. He didn''t know what had happened. "What''s the matter with Yunze recently?" Gu Beichen asked faintly. Xiao Jing looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror and said, "old Lin''s operation was done by Li Shao and he Yining... Is this a big deal?" Gu Beichen''s eyes sank and didn''t answer, but his heart became more and more heavy. It''s like it''s done. Now, except for being in the army to the south, it seems that the three of them haven''t handled it very smoothly emotionally recently. After arriving at Huakang hospital, Gu Beichen went straight to Li Yunze''s office and waited while he used his computer to deal with the emperor''s affairs. It was an hour, but Gu Beichen waited for two hours and didn''t see Li Yunze''s man. After closing the computer, Gu Beichen got up and went to the window. He looked out with his hands in his pockets Sometimes in the hospital, life and death leave, but sometimes it is also enviable. In the garden, the patients accompanied by their families were smiling on their faces. Gu Beichen''s eyes fell on a man holding a pregnant woman for a walk. Suddenly, his eyes suddenly gathered. There is a terrible but complex emotion in my mind Mo''er said she was pregnant in order to keep him from pushing her away? The most important thing is... According to Yunze, the progesterone hormone produced after eight weeks of pregnancy will have a significant effect on silence. Gu Beichen''s breath gradually became heavy The note left by Mo''er... He thought the child mentioned vaguely, and he instinctively thought it meant Xiao Jie! According to the date, and Mo''er''s recent memory has not faded, is... She really pregnant? Chapter 568 The door of the office rang. Gu Beichen looked back and saw Li Yunze''s face slightly stretched and came in. Gu Beichen didn''t speak. He just looked at him with questions in his eyes. Li Yunze looked at Bei Chen and wanted to say something... But when the words came to his mouth, he endured it. Beichen will hide his existence one by one, and he can''t be blamed. After all, he and he Yining Li Yunze clenched his hand, sucked his breath and sank again. Finally, a touch of helplessness under anger overflowed from the evil charm''s handsome face. Gu Beichen looked at the change of his friend''s face. Li Yunze didn''t say, and he didn''t ask anything. "I''ve done a clinical trial with white mice these days," Li Yunze said. "There are some effects... But you also know that animals are different from people, so..." "Yunze, Mo''er may be pregnant." Gu Beichen interrupted Li Yunze. "Oh..." Li Yunze answered subconsciously. A second later, he suddenly stared at Gu Beichen. "You, you... What are you talking about? You said Jian Mo was pregnant?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. He was disgusted with Li Yunze''s voice, which grew louder because of surprise. "Beichen, are you sure?" Li Yunze completely put aside the negative emotions brought by the things he just went out, "I didn''t listen to you before." "I didn''t think about that..." Gu Beichen looked a little dignified. "I''m not sure, just guessing." "Didn''t Jian Mo and Shi Shaoqin come to Los Angeles?" Li Yunze said anxiously, "I''ll go and have a look." "No..." Gu Beichen immediately objected. Li Yunze was stunned, "why?" "Make sure Shi Shaoqin may also find out." Gu Beichen said calmly, "the current situation is that Shi Shaoqin must not know." Li Yunze patted his forehead and suddenly reacted. After abandoning his mouth, he asked, "what should I do?" Gu Beichen thought for a moment, his face slightly heavy He now speculates that if Mo''er is really pregnant, there will be more problems First of all, Mo''er should not remember it So, does Shi juechi know? I haven''t thought about this before, and I haven''t confirmed with Shi Juxi... Now it''s obviously difficult to find out without Shi Shaoqin''s notice. "I have a way..." Li Yunze said suddenly. Gu Beichen twisted his eyebrows and looked at him with an inquiry in the bottom of his eyes. Li Yunze slowly opened his mouth with an evil smile: "you forget... My father is a traditional Chinese medicine, but he has many retired old traditional Chinese medicine friends." Gu Beichen listened and pondered slightly. He immediately understood Li Yunze''s plan ¡­¡­ Jian Mo stood on the crescent lake and looked at the log style villa in front of her. The joy in her eyes was not pretended "How beautiful." Jane Mo sighed from her heart, "I like the design of this house!" Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were deep and his mouth was smiling. "Originally, this is a gift for you... You like it, that''s the best." "I like..." Jane Mo nodded quickly and definitely. The starlight at the bottom of her eyes was not disguised, but she really liked it. Shi Shaoqin smiled softly at the corners of his mouth, and his narrow eyes overflowed with a smile that even he didn''t know himself. That kind of smile doesn''t come from the cold world without a trace of emotion... But because the other party is happy, inexplicably, he is also happy. Jian Mo didn''t notice Shi Shaoqin''s expression, but just pushed open the gate of the fence and walked into a front garden It is full of pink and purple stars, mixed with roses climbing on the fence, combined with the smell of grass in the air, Jian Mo involuntarily closed his eyes and felt the distance from the noise at this moment Logs, crescent lake, grass, blue sky, flowers... These are the irreplaceable enjoyment of reinforced concrete. "Shao Shi, I like it here..." Jane Mo opened her eyes, looked back and emphasized it again. Shi Shaoqin''s line of sight became deeper and deeper. Looking at Jian Mo, he looked curiously to the East and West. While touching the west, he emphasized "I like it" and "it''s beautiful". When he emphasized "it''s so beautiful", he couldn''t see the bottom of his eyes. Why doesn''t she like her design? What''s more... Here is originally required according to her preferences. Shi Shaoqin walked in with a smile at the corners of his mouth. At the same time, he motioned for Morson. "Yes!" Mosen answered, looked at Jian Mo standing on the viewing platform on the second floor, and turned and left. When he got on the bus, Mosen glanced again. At this time, Shi Shaoqin had also been on the viewing platform. He didn''t know what he was talking to Jian mo How do you feel that things are becoming more and more incomprehensible? With doubt, Mosen took back his sight, looked sideways again, and then started the car to leave. "Take a break first..." Shi Shaoqin said after Jian Mo was excited. "When the meal is ready, I''ll call you, huh?" Jian Mo was really tired. She nodded and was sent to the bedroom by Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin poured water for Jian mo. Xu was too excited. Xu was really thirsty. He didn''t hesitate this time. After that, he drank it. Watching Jian Mo lie down and close his eyes, Shi Shaoqin leaned down His lips didn''t touch Jane Mo''s skin, but when he smelled her body fragrance, his eyebrows and hearts frowned together slowly. He can''t resist the danger signal, but let him know it. Jane Mo opened her eyes, and her close face almost stuck with her, "Shao Shi?" "Nothing... Sleep!" Shi Shaoqin got up slightly, and his beautiful handsome face became soft and charming because of his smile. Jane Mo hooked up the corners of her mouth, nodded slightly and closed her eyes again When I woke up again, it was two hours later. Jane Mo opened her eyes, and the hazy bottom of her eyes was strange. Looking around at the environment, an empty window appeared in my mind for a moment. She sat up slowly. Jian Mo lifted the quilt, got out of bed, got out of the bedroom, stood by the railing on the second floor, and saw Shi Shaoqin standing in front of the French window, talking on the phone with one hand. Xu felt his eyes behind him. Shi Shaoqin looked back and heard him say, "you''re so impatient. I didn''t keep the appointment with Mo''er. Didn''t you lose your face?" Shi Shaoqin looked back. "I''ll see you in the restaurant in an hour." Then he hung up and went upstairs. "Take you to dinner and change your clothes, huh?" Shi Shaoqin took Jian Mo''s hand and went to the dressing room in the bedroom. When I opened the cabinet, it was summer clothes on various occasions, and all the hanging tags were not removed. Shi Shaoqin casually took a meat pink skirt and handed it to Jian mo. her slender fingers gently twisted her long hair and said, "Mo''er, do you remember what you and I asked for before going to bed?" His words were slow and even induced When a person is so excited about something, he won''t forget it. If he feels up, he won''t forget it without accident, won''t he? He wants to see if the medicine... Is useful to Jane! Chapter 569 Jane Mo frowned and tilted her head. Her eyes were at a loss for a while. She looked at Shi Shaoqin with a puzzled line of sight, "what?" Seeing Jian Mo, he had no impression at all. Shi Shaoqin took out a mobile phone from his pocket while passing a shallow smile from the bottom of his eyes. Jian Mo looked down at her subconsciously, "mobile phone?" "Yes!" Shi Shaoqin answered gently and handed the mobile phone to Jian Mo, "don''t you think it''s inconvenient without a mobile phone?" Jian Mo subconsciously took it, looked up at Shi Shaoqin and tried to think about whether he had asked for a mobile phone... But after thinking for a while, he still had no impression at all. "Change your clothes..." Shi Shaoqin said with a smile. He put down his hand, looked at Jian Mo deeply and withdrew from the dressing room. Jane Mo didn''t move, just looking at the mobile phone in her hand After a full minute, she swiped the screen and flipped it. The mobile phone is very clean. Except for the basic app of the machine, there is no other software. There is only "Shao Shi" in the phone book, and the rest is clean. The sound of "Di" crossed, and Jane Mo''s heart trembled, and she saw a text message stuffed in. Open Shao Shi: if you don''t hurry up, we''ll be late for the appointment! Jian Mo stared at the message and looked around to make sure she didn''t see Shao Shi. Subconsciously, she went outside and saw him sitting on the bench at the end of the bed and looking at her with a smile. "Do you have perspective eyes?" Jane Mo asked slightly coyly. Shi Shaoqin said with deep eyes, "you can study slowly later. Change your clothes and clean up first, huh?" Jane Mo smiled, nodded and entered the dressing room again. As her figure disappeared, Shi Shaoqin''s smile gradually solidified He thought he could see people clearly, but he was a little confused about the recent Jane foam. No one''s play is seamless, but... She can always dispel all his doubts when he doubts. ¡­¡­ "Daddy..." when Jian Jie saw Gu Beichen, his black eyes were as bright as stars. He rushed directly into Gu Beichen''s arms and rubbed and rubbed, "Daddy, I miss you so much!" Gu Beichen hugged Jian Jie, who had grown a little taller, and rubbed his head with his big palm. "Daddy also misses you..." With that, he picked up Jane Jie and walked to the tree lined garden of the school. "Did you find Mommy?" Jian Jie looked at Gu Beichen with a sense of urgency. "Yes." "Really?" Jian Jie''s eyes widened in an instant, "Mommy is really alive..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Jie and nodded with a smile. "It''s a plane to Los Angeles with Daddy." "Why didn''t Mommy come to see me?" Jian Jie glanced. "It''s getting more and more outrageous!" Looking at the loss of the bottom of the little guy''s eyes, Gu Beichen had to pretend to be calm. Gu Beichen was sour for a while, "she''s in a situation now..." "Huh?" Jian Jie looks at Gu Beichen nervously. "If I say... She doesn''t remember us, are you sad?" Gu Beijie didn''t hide it. Jane Jie lowered her eyes, and the thick eyebrow eyelashes covered up the sadness at the bottom of her eyes. He didn''t answer immediately, but after a long time, he slowly asked, "Daddy must be sadder than me..." he raised his eyes and his voice was a little dull. "In fact, compared with mommy''s permanent departure, forgetting us... Has been a good result." Gu Beichen sat down on the bench under the creeper, directly placed Jian Jie on his leg and said gently, "daddy thinks so..." Jane Jie is very smart. Many things don''t need to be said very thoroughly, so she can understand them by herself. "I believe daddy can..." Jian Jie put his small hand on the back of Gu Beichen''s hand, "right?" Gu Beichen looked at the tender little hand, as if giving him strength to comfort and support, and couldn''t help laughing "I can''t lose my wife. You can''t live without Mommy, can you?" A rhetorical question made Jane Jie laugh. His father loves him like a mountain. Although Jian Jie was angry and dissatisfied with Gu Beichen, he never doubted his father''s promise to him. "I''ll take good care of myself..." Jian Jie said before Gu Beichen left. "Daddy doesn''t have to come to see me often, just in case, doesn''t he?" Gu Beichen felt guilty in the depths of his eagle eyes, but he was soon covered up by softness. He nodded, said nothing and left school He and Xiao Jie know that some people will not rest assured if they don''t think about this. But if he comes here frequently and is found by someone with a heart, it will be sooner or later Get on the bus and drive to Beijing hotel. On the way, Gu Beichen called Li Yunze "I''ve arrived." Li Yunze said, "it''s all arranged." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and hung up. At the right time, the car entered the parking lot of Feitian hotel. Gu Beichen looked at this historic hotel in Los Angeles as if... All the stories began here and then settled in his heart. Taking a pocket with one hand, Gu Beichen stepped into the pre chartered restaurant with a slow but steady step. Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo have arrived. Seeing him coming, one corner of his mouth is wearing a strange smile, and the other face is a little confused. Gu Beichen frowned secretly Under the control of drugs, Jane Mo will "forget" things, but she will remember him recently. But now, obviously she doesn''t remember him! "I''m just before I rest..." Shi Shaoqin''s leisurely voice came, "I just added a dose." "Teng" for a moment, Gu Beichen''s fierce eyes shot at Shi Shaoqin, and the ink pupil was suddenly dark. Shi Shaoqin didn''t mind at all. He just introduced Jian Mo with a smile: "my friend Gu Beichen, Los Angeles is his territory. He''s the host these days." After listening to this, Jane Mo immediately smiled and greeted Gu Beichen just like a stranger at first sight. In the dining room, there was a strange atmosphere, but in the back hall, it was not easy. Li Yunze looked at the big boy dressed as a painted waiter in front of him and asked again: "Yan Rui, there is not much time. We must seize the opportunity..." "Li Shao, don''t worry..." Yan Rui nodded. "I don''t dare to say whether there is a pregnant body. This is the basic skill. It must be OK!" Li Yunze nodded and signaled to the lobby manager that he could arrange it. Yan Rui is a proud student of Li Jiyuan''s good friend. Although he is still in school, he has written several academic papers on traditional Chinese medicine and is also the seedling of key cultivation I will find him, mainly because he has strong painting skills. In order to attract couples, Feitian hotel recently launched an interesting small color painting activity. Let Yan Rui give Jian Mo a chance to paint on his wrist, and he will have a chance to feel his pulse It was carried out in front of Shi Shaoqin, and this activity was not temporary, so he suspected it was very unlikely. Most importantly, he can determine whether progesterone hormone is effective for silence and confirm whether Jane Mo is really pregnant. Chapter 570 Jian Mo will be eager for color painting, which is a woman''s instinct for beauty and novelty. Gu Beichen and Li Yunze will not be surprised. Shi Shaoqin naturally wouldn''t sweep away the nature of Jian mo... When the waiter asked, he agreed. Yan Rui and Li Yunze nodded slightly, then pushed the cart with painted materials and calmly walked to the only table in the restaurant. "Excuse me, is this lady in need of color painting?" Yan Rui asked politely. When he saw Shi Shaoqin''s beauty, he was obviously surprised. Shi Shaoqin''s face was a little dark. His slender fingers tapped gently on the table, and his eyes became deep, "HMM." "It''s me..." almost at the same time, Jian Mo and Shi Shaoqin opened their mouth together. "Where do you want to paint?" Yan Rui asked again. Jane Mo was a little confused. "What''s your suggestion?" Yan Rui looked up and down at Jian Mo and suggested very seriously: "ordinary women like to work in the clavicle, behind the ear and..." "Not behind the clavicle and ear!" Shi Shaoqin''s indifferent voice interrupted Yan Rui''s words, with a warning in his voice. Yan Rui twitched at the corners of his mouth. After looking at the eye stone Shaoqin, he said with a smile: "in fact, many people also like to paint on their ankles or wrists." Shi Shaoqin glanced at Yan Rui. From the man''s eyes, he clearly saw his embarrassment under Jian Mo''s possessive desire. Secretly frowned, Shi Shaoqin just coldly took back his sight, glanced at Beichen and looked at Jian mo. "Where do you want to draw?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice is as soft as a violin song. The indifference of different talents shows the doting of soft. Jane moo smiled at the corners of her mouth. Can''t this public draw on her ankles? "Wrist!" Jane Mo said and handed her wrist. Yan Rui was not surprised to choose this way. After he pondered the pattern slightly, he prepared the paint and wanted to grab Jian Mo''s hand But because of the embarrassment just now, Yan Rui looked at Shi Shaoqin and felt as if... You can''t be overbearing and can''t even touch your hands? Thinking like this, Yan Rui just tentatively touched Jian Mo''s wrist. Seeing that Shi Shaoqin had no objection, he asked, "what do you draw?" Jane Mo thought, "you see, anything is OK." "OK." Yan Rui answered, and under the gaze of Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin, he began to seriously paint Jian mo. Several times, he stroked his hand to catch Jian Mo''s pulse, but in the end, it was stopped by the sharp eyes from Shi Shaoqin. Li Shao has just explained that this man has deep thoughts Gu Beichen glanced at Shi Shaoqin coldly and said, "I didn''t speak... You seem to be serious." The words without source made people confused, but Shi Shaoqin reacted at once. "Mo''er is my woman. Do I have abnormal possessiveness?" Shi Shaoqin raised his eyebrows and spoke coldly, but his sight did not leave Jian Mo''s painted wrist. Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned and opened his thin lips: "when... Did you become so annoying?" A light sneer successfully pulled back Shi Shaoqin''s line of sight when he looked at the painting. He Ling ran looked at Gu Beichen on one side, and his good-looking lips caught up, and a cold smile froze there. Two men, no one spoke At the moment when they looked at each other, the air around them was solidified between the electric light and flint. Yan Rui looked at the two people as if timidly, writing a little trembling... But he tried to concentrate on painting. Jane Mo had no mind to take care of the painting. She just looked at the two people and asked, "what''s the matter with you?" "Nothing!" "Nothing..." Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin spoke at the same time, and their eyes were slightly chilly at the same time, slowly calming down each other''s hostility. The feeling of itching under the stroke came from the wrist. Jian Mo didn''t study the two people deeply, but looked down at the color painting on the wrist But in a few minutes, there appeared a beautiful and exquisite butterfly. "So beautiful..." Jane Mo sighed. Yan Rui was praised, and a proud smile appeared on his face. After falling the last tone, he straightened up, "OK." Jian Mo first looked at it himself, and then excitedly extended his wrist to Shi Shaoqin, "Shaoshi, look..." It was obviously pleasant for Jian Mo to let himself see it first. Shi Shaoqin looked at the butterfly that was not very exquisite to him, and even thought it was very beautiful. Shi Shaoqin glanced at Beichen with some pride. After taking care of Beichen, he took out his wallet, pulled out a large bill and handed it to Yan Rui. "Thank you..." Yan Rui happily took over and looked down at the money in his hand. At least there were more than ten or twenty pieces. Suddenly, the smile on his face was deeper. "If you like, I can also provide door-to-door service..." Yan Rui took out his business card while putting the money in his pocket. "This is my business card. You want color painting in the future..." Yan Rui stopped talking halfway through what he said. He looked at Shi Shaoqin''s sharp eyes, swallowed involuntarily and pulled the corners of his mouth hard, "that... I won''t disturb you three for dinner!" With that, he secretly glanced at Beichen, then turned around and wanted to leave. "Wait!" Yan Ruigang just raised his feet and stopped. He was even more ''cluttering'' in his heart. He secretly wondered whether he was acting too much as a greedy man? Slowly turned around, Yan Rui even pulled the corners of his mouth and looked at Shi Shaoqin. His lips moved back and forth, but he didn''t speak first. "I don''t like talkative people very much," Shi Shaoqin slowly looked into his eyes and smiled at the corners of his mouth. "Do you understand?" Yan Rui tried to pull a smile, but he couldn''t pull it up. He just looked at Beichen in surprise and hurried to answer, "we also have rules, understand!" "You can go..." Yan Rui pulled the corners of his mouth and bowed slightly, then turned around and pushed the painting car away. "Is it useful?" Gu Beichen said slowly, "I''m not afraid. What are you afraid of?" Shi Shaoqin picked up the red wine glass and looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. His attention was all on the color painting. Then he slowly opened his mouth: "afraid?" He smiled, "what have I been afraid of?" After sipping the lipstick, Shi Shaoqin glanced at Gu Beichen. "News is the best news only when it is valuable... Isn''t it?" If it''s gentle, it shows the pressure of pressing people''s hearts, and it''s more treacherous. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and there was a dark sullen flash at the bottom of his eyes. What is the purpose of Shi Shaoqin bringing Mo''er to Los Angeles? He knows very well To avoid being criticized, Mo''er should not only cooperate with Shi Shaoqin, but also prevent Mo''er from appearing in the public view But how could Shi Shaoqin make things so simple. The atmosphere of the restaurant became dignified when Jane and mo were unknown. After Yan Rui left Shi Shaoqin''s sight, he breathed heavily and his heart beat like thunder. Seeing his appearance, Li Yunze was also in a cold sweat, "you are too bold to add drama to yourself..." "He gives so many tips at once. It''s too calm to have a problem." Yan Rui covered the position of his heart and said. He felt that his heart was going to break through his chest. Li Yunze glanced and asked, "did you find out what you told me?" Yan Rui swallowed several times and said, "I''m sure she''s pregnant..." Chapter 571 Li Yunze''s pupils expanded in an instant, "are you sure?" Because of surprise, his voice was a little loud. After that, he hurriedly covered his mouth Look around. Fortunately, it''s the inner hall. Even if the voice was loud just now, it couldn''t spread... Li Yunze secretly despised himself and waited for Yan Rui to answer. "Yes." Yan Rui looked serious, "it''s just that Chen Shao''s time holding the man is too short. I don''t have enough time to determine how long the pregnancy is..." He looked back and completely forgot that he was not outside at all. He looked back again. "There was no accident. It should be more than two months or three months." Li Yunze gradually frowned when he heard this Now it is not only confirmed that progesterone hormone does inhibit silence, but also confirmed that Jane Mo is pregnant. But there are two things that should be happy, but there is no happy capital at the moment. "Wait, you go back first!" Li Yunze sighed and said. "Don''t you have to wait for them to leave?" Li Yunze shook his head, "there is only one table of guests today. It has been painted by now. It''s meaningless for you to stay..." Yan Rui thought, "then I''ll go back to school first." "Yes!" Li Yunze answered. After Yan Rui left, Li Yunze left after a while Instead of going back to the hospital or home, he drove to paradise night. In the fixed box, the place where the four young boys in Los Angeles used to meet. Now Lin nanwo is in the army and rarely comes back. Because of the warmth, the Dragon owl stays on the beach most of the time... Only he and Gu Beichen are still in Los Angeles. At the moment, there was only Li Yunze alone in such a big box. "Hey..." Li Yunze sighed heavily, attached himself, put down the wine glass in his hand, got up and paced back and forth in the box. If Beichen knew that Jian Mo was pregnant, he could almost imagine how uncomfortable he was. Such a man can get up when he falls. However, for him who can''t protect the people he cares about most and his children... How much harm is that? ¡­¡­ One meal, Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin seemed to be the same, but secretly tit for tat ate for more than two hours. For Gu Beichen, Jian Mo seems to have returned to the starting point, and everything has become zero... For a meal, he has only polite things, and there is nothing left. "I''ll go to the bathroom." Jane Mo put down her napkin and said something to Shi Shaoqin. Then she wanted to get up. "Can you be alone?" Shi Shaoqin asked with concern. Jane Mo smiled and nodded, took her handbag, turned around and went to the bathroom with the waiter''s instructions. Gu Beichen has been looking at the back of Jian Mo with deep eyes, and there is a trace of unspeakable helplessness on his lips. "Isn''t it strange?" Shi Shaoqin said slowly, "why did she... Forget again?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but calmly took back his sight. After taking a cold look at Shi Shaoqin, he took a red wine cup and sipped. Shi Shaoqin didn''t mind Gu Beichen''s attitude, but continued: "I improved the medicine again... This time, what she may forget is not just memory..." He paused deliberately, and the smile from the corners of his mouth was filled with gloom. Gu Beichen looked at Shi Shaoqin. The eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly and still didn''t speak. "It''s possible..." Shi Shaoqin slowly tilted his head and looked at Gu Beichen. Slowly and quietly, he dropped the next half sentence, "... And his feelings for many people." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was dark and bottomless. He gently opened his thin lips and said slowly, "feel?" He said softly, with a mockery at the corners of his mouth, "Shaoqin, do you know what it feels like?" Shi Shaoqin immediately changed his face and even got angry. "Gu Beichen, you want to die!" Gu Beichen was not afraid of the anger that filled his body. Even if he was so indifferent, he didn''t mind the pain caused by Shi Shaoqin. "Even if I want to die, are you willing to let me die?" In Leng hiss''s voice, Gu Beichen glanced at Shi Shaoqin and continued, "I''ll let you see if a person''s feeling can be controlled by drugs!" After that, Gu Beichen got up and left the restaurant without even a pause. Looking at Gu Beichen leaving, Shi Shaoqin gradually raised a smile around his mouth... But while that smile was stiff at the corners of his mouth, his narrow eyes narrowed slowly. With a slight sign, Morson came over. "Qin Shao?" "Go and check..." Shi Shaoqin said slowly, "the background of the painter." Morson was slightly stunned and didn''t understand. "Who knows..." Shi Shaoqin coldly raised the corner of his mouth, "... Is that Chen''s arrangement?" He seemed to be joking, but Morson felt a chill in the soles of his feet. ¡­¡­ Jane Mo put her handbag on the glass stage, washed her hands and looked at herself in the mirror. After a while, she slowly withdrew her mind and looked down at the color painting on her wrist. Jane moju touched the corner of her mouth, moved her fingers slightly, and moved the ring on the ring finger of her left hand to reveal the Flower English letters inside. "Chen..." Jane Mo murmured the English letters, and her face gradually became dignified. When she got up at that time, she really forgot something... But I don''t know why. Before she changed her clothes, her memory of these days came back. However, I don''t remember anything too long ago. Jane Mo looks down again and looks at the tattoo on her finger Did she stab this for Gu Beichen? If so... What about this ring? Jian Mo pushed the ring back to its original position and took out the mobile phone in her handbag... Looking at the only phone number on it and the clean screen page, she clutched it and put it back into her handbag. Anyway, the only thing she can be sure of now is Shaoshi doesn''t want her to remember anything. Gu Beichen is not so urgent, but he wants her to remember him. Jane Mo walked out and took a deep breath just as she was about to step into the corner of the restaurant Now that there is a mobile phone, Shao Shi returns it to her when she forgets. What did she find, or just what she wants? With doubts, Jane Mo took a breath and went out Anyway, she needs to calm down before she can know... Who is important to Shao Shi and Gu Beichen. As an international metropolis, Los Angeles is always full of neon lights at night. Xiao Jing parked his car on Paradise night. Gu Beichen glanced and got out of the car. When he opened the box door, Li Yunze had drunk half of a bottle of red wine. "No surgery tomorrow?" Gu Beichen asked and sat down. "Recently, I studied silence. I didn''t row unless I had a major operation..." Li Yunze put down the cup and looked at Gu Beichen with a heavy face. "Beichen, it''s confirmed that Jian Mo is pregnant!" Chapter 572 With psychological preparation in advance, Gu Beichen was not surprised by this answer... But he was still surprised. Such surprise comes from worry Li Yunze glanced at his friend and slowly said, "what are you going to do next?" "Mo''er doesn''t remember me again." Gu Beichen gently lifted his thin lips and slowly lay back on the sofa. Li Yunze was stunned, "impossible!" Gu Beichen glanced at Li Yunze and waited for him to continue. "Although I''m not sure about the experiment, the progesterone hormone released by the human body has a great effect on silence." Li Yunze explained, "although Yan Rui doesn''t have time to find out the specific months of Jian Mo, there are some in about three months. This time is the best time to restrain silence." Gu Beichen narrowed his eyes slightly, "but Mo''er really doesn''t remember me again... In addition, Shi Shaoqin meant to add medicine to Mo''er." Li Yunze pondered for a while, still shook his head, "shouldn''t..." "Huh?" Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen and said, "in this period, even if the medicine is aggravated, it can only cause a moment of memory confusion... It should be impossible to keep forgetting." With that, he turned his head and murmured suspiciously, "it may take a little longer, but it won''t be in the case of recent memory confusion." Gu Beichen listened, and the eagle''s eyes became deep He thought about all the things he saw Jane Mo at night. Suddenly, his eyes suddenly gathered. "What''s the matter?" Li Yunze asked with some worry. Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes and had recovered his indifference, "Mo''er may be pretending..." "Why do you say that?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but Mo Tong gradually couldn''t see the bottom At that time, when Yan Rui asked about the color painting, Mo''er looked at the position of the ring. At that time, he didn''t think much, but thought she was trying to draw something... But if according to Yunze, Mo''er won''t have memory confusion in the near future, there''s only one explanation. The first reaction was that she wanted to draw the Flower English under the ring, but later she held back... She didn''t want Shi Shaoqin to be suspicious. ¡­¡­ Xiao Jing sent Gu Beichen to heaven and left after the night Due to the complete downfall of Gu mohuai, the emperor now officially entered the era when Gu Beichen was in power alone. The closing of equity has made his personal assets among the top of the global rich list. Under such circumstances, it is no exaggeration to say... The emperor has reached the point of covering the sky with one hand in Los Angeles. But after the harvest of his career, it is inevitable that someone will gossip about his previous affair Originally, the matter of Jian Mo was turned over, but with the media reports that Gu Beichen returned to Los Angeles on a business trip, inexplicably, the matter was raised by some people. Xiangwan and mu Xiaoran were eating with a box of small fried potatoes while walking, and their faces were a little heavy. "Xiaoran... I miss sister mo." Said to the evening, his face completely stepped down. Mu Xiaoran stopped and hung his eyes, but for a moment, his eyes were red. Xiang night was also sad. He didn''t notice mu Xiaoran''s mood. He just said angrily, "why do you say those people owe so much? Gu Beichen will come back when he comes back... He still likes to talk about using sister mo." At the thought of just eating in the night market and hearing what the men at the next table were talking about, I didn''t fight at night. Mu Xiaoran took a deep breath and said angrily, "we can''t control other people''s mouths, as long as we know sister Mo''s good." "That''s all I can do..." Xiang night turned his mouth, looked around powerlessly, and suddenly settled in one place. "What''s the matter?" Mu Xiaoran looked up and asked when he saw Xiang Wan''s surprised face. Xiang night motioned with his chin, "the painter is out." Mu Xiaoran looked down his line of sight and sure enough... A big boy was putting things. "Go or not?" He raised his eyebrows to the evening. "I''m not in the mood today." Mu Xiaoran shook his head. He shrugged to the evening, directly pulled mu Xiaoran and walked over there, "if you are not in the mood, you should be in a better mood..." In this way, mu Xiaoran was dragged to the painter''s place in the evening. Finally, he randomly selected a small pattern, sat down on a small stool and waited for the painting. In the distance, a black car slowly stopped at the roadside. The driving window slowly lowered, and a pair of sharp eyes looked in the direction of the painter Just in time, the phone rang. The driver pressed the Bluetooth and listened to the sound from inside. "I checked nearby. This painter occasionally painted around the night market... I heard that his father was in the hospital waiting for a kidney change and needed a lot of money." "What does he do himself?" "I''m a junior in the Department of Finance and economics of Luoda." "Yes!" The driver answered and hung up. Then he called Mosen and described the information he had found. After listening quietly, Mosen glanced at Shi Shaoqin, who was walking with Jian Mo by the crescent lake, and answered, "I see." After that, he hung up the phone and didn''t report. He just stood where he was and didn''t leave the two people walking. Mosen looked at the hand held by eye stone Shaoqin and Jian Mo, and his eyes were slightly deep. At the same time, his hand gradually clenched up unconsciously. However, before he clenched it tightly, he seemed to realize something and slowly loosened it again. Paradise night. Gu Beichen answered the phone and didn''t speak from beginning to end. He just made a "um" sound when hanging up. "What''s the matter?" Li Yunze asked after he hung up. Gu Beichen put a cold smile on his thin lips, "Shi Shaoqin really went to send Yan Rui''s identity." Li Yunze smiled with evil charm, "the man is so suspicious that there is a problem if he doesn''t check." After a pause, he continued, "fortunately, I have been prepared..." Although the use of color painting, using Yan Rui, a student of the Chinese medicine hospital, to feel Jian Mo''s pulse was temporary. But it''s easy to disguise some harmless things quickly in Los Angeles, the territory of the four little boys in Los Angeles. "Yan Rui will be able to act at that time..." Gu Beichen raised his wine glass and said with deep eyes. "Professor Su''s favorite student is also a man of the moment in the school." Li Yunze shrugged and said, "in order to get the needle steady and fast, I learned color painting." Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze and said nothing. He just put down his cup and got up. Without saying anything, he lifted his steps and walked out. "Beichen?" Li Yunze simply put down his glass and walked out, "what do you seem to be worried about?" Gu Beichen copied his pocket with one hand and slowly opened his mouth while waiting for the elevator: "everyone''s play is too full..." "What do you mean?" Li Yunze didn''t react. Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was slightly heavy, "things will turn back at the extreme!" Chapter 573 With a "Ding" sound, the elevator arrived. Just as the elevator door opened, Gu Beichen walked inside. Li Yunze was still stunned. He reacted and hurried in. "What is the opposite when things are extreme?" Li Yunze''s voice was a little dignified. "You mean, everyone''s performance is too full. Shi Shaoqin will doubt it, won''t he?" Gu Beichen''s sword eyebrows have frowned together... He doesn''t know if it''s what he thinks, but his momentary uneasy heart makes him a little flustered. ¡­¡­ The moonlight is young and the evening wind is gentle. Everything seems to be quiet and good. "Mo''er, is it better here or on the beach?" Shi Shaoqin took Jian Mo''s hand and slowly stepped on the blue stone path around Yueya Lake. Jian morwei blurted the corner of his mouth invisibly, "I like it here..." "Why?" Shi Shaoqin asked lightly, "because of this villa?" Jane nodded and shook her head again. "I don''t know why. I always think I''m familiar with this city... Especially the hotel where I go to dinner tonight. I always feel like I''ve forgotten something there." Jane Mo''s words are not disguised, but her real feelings At that time, she tried to suppress the feeling in her heart, but she knew the contradictory psychology of palpitation and heart tremor. Especially when Gu Beichen appeared there, she inexplicably felt that she had something with Gu Beichen in that place. Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful lips slightly raised a wanton radian, and his long and narrow eyes narrowed slightly. He said gently just now: "that''s where we first met..." "What?" Jian Mo was stunned, then stopped and looked at Shi Shaoqin with a surprised face. Shi Shaoqin simply stopped. The moonlight was white and flawless. It fell on the lake with the night lamp, and then reflected on Jian Mo''s face, especially soft. "You don''t remember..." Shi Shaoqin gently stroked the hair of Jian Mo, which was disturbed by the evening wind, and said in a soft voice, "Mo''er, you don''t remember the past, and I don''t want to mention it..." Jane Mo''s heart beat faster involuntarily, but she didn''t know whether it was tension or instinctive resistance. "But," Shi Shaoqin''s voice was a little low, "I was suddenly afraid... I was afraid that some of the past you can''t remember, but you remember the past you shouldn''t remember." Jane Mo gradually frowned, "you wrapped me around..." Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes mockingly, "Mo''er, I don''t want you to go too close to Gu Beichen." "What''s the matter?" Jane Mo suddenly ''cluttered'' in her heart, "isn''t he your friend?" She tried to keep the reaction she should have, and didn''t dare to be careless at all. Shi Shaoqin gently hooked the hair behind Jian Mo''s ear, gently kneaded her earrings with his fingers at will, and said vaguely: "is it more attractive for you with blank memory to have such an excellent man appear in front of you?" Jane Mo''s heart began to coagulate, and her breathing seemed to leak a few times "Mo''er," Shi Shaoqin called softly, "although I don''t want to admit it, I''m still afraid..." The deep, low and hoarse voice showed forbearance, and Jian Mo''s heart kept jumping ''Dong Dong Dong''. She instinctively resisted, but she couldn''t resist. "Shao Shi, i..." Jian Mo''s breathing became heavy. "I''m not what you think of him." "What do I think?" Shi Shaoqin is shallow and light. Jane Mo was stunned. "I..." she subconsciously opened her mouth, but stopped, "I don''t know..." She lowered her eyes, and her eyes fell on the position where Shi Shaoqin held her hand, trying to resist the impulse to break free and escape. Obviously, it is the most palpitating helplessness between lovers, but she only feels resistance and even a little disgust. Such a feeling is impossible. It''s like trying to get close to Gu Beichen''s instinctive palpitation. The hand that was not held was slightly held, and her finger abdomen touched the ring... She subconsciously rubbed it, and the position of her heart beat even more. There is a tiny tattoo in Flower English, which is "Chen". She always suspected that it was Gu Beichen Under the ring, in the ring finger nearest to the heart... What do these represent? "People who love each other sometimes don''t necessarily end up together..." Shi Shaoqin continued. "But people who come together don''t necessarily love each other." In the faint voice, there is unspeakable grief and helplessness. Jian Mo raised her eyes and looked at Shi Shaoqin. In her only impression, he had never been so insecure. "Shao Shi..." Jian Mo subconsciously shouted. The black pupil was particularly pure and bright in the moonlight. Shi Shaoqin fingers gently across Jian Mo''s cheek. She is very beautiful and exudes charming characteristics because of her personality. Gu Beichen would fall in love with such a woman. He couldn''t figure it out, but he didn''t seem surprised. It''s just that good things are meant to be destroyed, aren''t they? Deep in the bottom of Shi Shaoqin''s eyes, there was an invisible gloom. That gloomy, gradually gathered together, spilled bloodthirsty killing "Mo''er, we met at the beginning, you can''t remember." Shi Shaoqin continued, "but I can''t bear to see that we have been together so much. When I wait for you to come to me, everything is just a mirage, do you understand?" Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin''s helplessness and unbearable pain, and his heart was suddenly stung... But in an instant, his eyes were slightly red, and a thin layer of water mist was dense in his eyes. It seems that in my memory, there was once a man who looked at her so sadly and told her how much helplessness, but it can not be coordinated by a love. The eyelashes fluttered gently, and the tears in the eyes became stronger and stronger, as if they were moving, they could fall down. Shi Shaoqin gently wiped away the moisture that had overflowed from the corners of Jian Mo''s eyes, and his eyes looked at her to become deep At that moment, his heart was beating. Has been cold as if there has never been a warm heart, unexpectedly because Jane Mo is staring at his expression and the tears, she begins to be anxious? "I don''t know what happened before," Jane Mo said slowly, "but now, I only remember you, don''t I?" Shi Shaoqin''s wiping action paused slightly, "only remember me?" He said softly, "Mo''er, are you sure?" A rhetorical question stunned Jane Mo, and a lot of information was leaked out in a trance at that moment. "Oh" came suddenly. Jian Mo had been held by Shi Shaoqin and pulled into his arms, tightly sticking to him. Instinctively, Jian Mo pushed Shi Shaoqin and made her resist such a secret move. "Mo''er, this is the place I gave you..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was low and hoarse. He bathed in it with feelings he didn''t know, "tonight, you are mine..." Chapter 574 Jian Mo''s eyes widened in an instant. Her pupils instinctively overflowed and looked at Shi Shaoqin with resistance, "you......" she wanted to stabilize her mind, but she couldn''t stabilize it. Even the corners of her lips trembled slightly, "what are you talking about?" The whirlpool of Qin''s eyes will gradually devour everything at any time. "I said..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice became more and more depressed. With the charm of magnetism, he said slowly and word by word, "tonight, you are mine." ''Bang'', something exploded in her mind... Leaving Jane Mo with nowhere to escape all her disguises. The subconscious resistance made her even her body tremble slightly. "Shao Shi..." Jian Mo shouted, with a slight tremor under tension in his voice, "I..." "Mo''er...... you," Shi Shaoqin slowly bullied Jian Mo and watched her instinctively retreat. The corners of his mouth were all dangerous and smiled lightly, "don''t you want to?" Jian Mo''s heart suddenly "clattered". She looked at Shi Shaoqin''s deep and bottomless sight and couldn''t see what he was thinking at the moment... However, she still felt the dangerous smell that filled around and gradually surrounded her. "Shao Shi, I don''t know..." Jian Mo quickly restrained his mind and tried to suppress his inner resistance, as if he was tangled, "you know, I can''t remember, I don''t know..." She hung her eyes and dared not look at Shi Shaoqin''s sight. She was afraid, afraid that there was nothing to hide in such a sight. A voice gradually rose in her heart. She didn''t know what it was, but waited eagerly. But she didn''t know what to wait for. Lips, already tight. It looks very helpless, but only Jane Mo knows that she is suffering! Shi Shaoqin''s sharp eyes clearly didn''t overflow too much emotion, but it seemed to penetrate the hearts of the people. "Mo''er, I''m a normal man..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was low and hoarse, with a feeling bath that even he didn''t know. The feeling that his body was close together except for his clothes made him feel something he had never felt before. That feeling even made him hold some urgent hope However, because of this hope, he wanted to know something more and was not noticed. Jane Mo closed her eyes and became short of breath. I saw her hand clenched. When her finger abdomen touched the ring inside the ring, she took a deep breath and raised her eyes, looking at Shi Shaoqin''s line of sight, "Shaoshi, can you give me time?" Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes slightly and then opened his eyes. No answer, not even words Looking straight at her eyes, just looking at Shi Mo in her heart. Jian Mo breathed quickly and tried her best to forbear. She didn''t look calm, but she became a little invisible under Shi Shaoqin''s gaze. Different from the disguise in peace, women are sensitive to physical contact. For those who accept, they will only heartbeat and forget the tight fit. For unacceptable people, instinctively, they want to distance themselves This idea made Jian MO realize the difference between Shao Shi and Gu Beichen from his physical senses. But now, it''s not the time to think about this "Shao... Ah!" Jian Mo just opened his mouth and had no time to shout out Shi Shaoqin''s name. The hand held by Shi Shaoqin suddenly emptied, and the man was lifted up in the air. She subconsciously grabbed Shi Shaoqin''s sleeve, wanted to struggle, and stopped at the last moment. With her recent memory and instinctive consciousness, she knew that the more resistance at the moment, the more counterproductive it would be. However, if Shao Shi really wants to talk to her What is she going to do? From beginning to end, Morson stood in place and always looked at the "interaction" between Shi Shaoqin and Jian mo. When he saw Shi Shaoqin walking to the villa with Jian Mo in his arms, there was an air current in his heart. For a moment, he even had an impulse to Mosen''s mood stopped when Shi Shaoqin was getting closer and closer. He slowly lowered his eyes, and his lowered eyes covered all the darkness inside. Jian Mo was put on the soft big bed in Shi Shaoqin''s bedroom. In the house, there was a smell of lily that didn''t know when to put in. That light and elegant aroma, coupled with the night wind with the smell of grass, slowly blew in If you are a person who is happy with each other, you must be out of control at the moment. But now Jian Mo''s heart beat faster and faster. She knew clearly that if Shaoshi made further moves, she would resist. At the moment, she can only try to disguise, and then don''t mess up until the last moment. But obviously... Shi Shaoqin is not trying to tempt or frighten her at all. Some of the rough fingers began to touch Jane''s cheek uncontrollably. "Mo''er, you hate me very much..." Shi Shaoqin mocked himself at the corner of his mouth, "is that right?" Jane Mo''s heartbeat missed a beat, "no!" She said instinctively without thinking. Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes slightly, put his hands on both sides of Jian Mo''s shoulders, and slightly attached to his body Jane Mo held her breath and twisted the bed sheet in her hand. When Shi Shaoqin''s face stopped at most 20 centimeters from her, she breathed a sigh of relief. "But you..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was always slow and depressing, "resisting me!" Jane moo smiled at the corner of her lips and didn''t dare to answer... She just thought that more words and more mistakes at the moment. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed gradually, and he knew that in the bottomless line of sight, the breath of yin and prey surged in circles. Jane Mo''s breathing began to be short, and her pupils spread out because of fear Shi Shaoqin leaned over again and was not happy at all... He oppressed Jian Mo''s mood step by step. String, the tighter the string. Breathing is thick and short, making the chest rise and fall. Shi Shaoqin continued to press down, but his eyes were always anxious with Jian mo... The beautiful corners of his mouth had overflowed clear danger, and in his eyes, Jian Mo''s chest, which was undulating due to his rapid breathing, rubbed his chest and showed a hot bath view. Jane Mo is a woman, a woman is emotional When she saw Shi Shaoqin''s strong bath look rising from the bottom of his eyes, the fear of his eyes could not be suppressed. When Shi Shaoqin''s lips were about to fall on her lips, she couldn''t turn her head. Shi Shaoqin''s lips gently rubbed Jian Mo''s cheek and was touched. At that moment, a string in his heart was broken. At the bottom of his eyes, the bathing hope under the wild nature of men can not be restrained. His crazy thoughts control his body. Even Shi Shaoqin, who has always been cold-hearted, has only the madness of attack and possessiveness at this moment. Big palm, pulled over Jian Mo''s face, and the beautiful Junyan pressed down again with occupation "Don''t --" Chapter 575 Jian Mo put her hands on Shi Shaoqin''s chest. She could no longer restrain her resistance, but just wanted to push him away. Shi Shaoqin Jun''s face has been shrouded in a strong haze, which is a kind of ruthless bloodthirsty. Jian Mo gasped. She stared at Shi Shaoqin. At the moment, all disguises were replaced by resistance. Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes slightly. The dangerous breath mixed with love bath has made him gloomy and treacherous. "Mo''er..." Shi Shaoqin called softly, "you must be mine today!" The voice of danger seemed to come from hell, just as Satan''s hand was going to stretch out, and all he wanted was his. "Shao Shi, don''t..." Jian Mo''s eyes are red. "You can''t force me!" "I can''t?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, with a disappointed smile on his mouth, "can Gu Beichen do it?" Jane Mo widened her eyes. "What are you talking about?" "Mo''er, do you want to continue loading?" Shi Shaoqin''s hand shackled Jian Mo''s chin and gently rubbed her skin. Jian Mo is well maintained. Her skin is smooth and delicate in the palm of her hand... At the moment, such a touch makes Shi Shaoqin cry. Even, the hot heat flow in the lower abdomen seems to be boiling. Jane moxin had raised her voice, "what are you talking about?" She seemed unable to understand, "Shao Shi, what''s the matter with you? Why did you suddenly..." "Mo''er, I don''t like cheating, you know?" Shi Shaoqin interrupted Jian Mo, "I clearly remember the recent events. Why do you pretend not to remember? Are you doubting me?" Connected with several questions, completely disintegrated Jane Mo''s last disguise She stared at Shi Shaoqin. At that moment, she even forgot her last struggle. Shi Shaoqin smiled, laughing dangerously and more aggressively. In fact, he just suspected that at dinner, he almost thought the medicine was useful for Jane mo But just walking outside, her fingers subconsciously touched the ring and still didn''t escape his sight. At first, she would not let him take off the ring except subconsciously... But she never made such a small move. "Shao Shi, listen to me..." Jian Mo said in a panic, "it''s not what you think, I just..." "Just what?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, "I just think you don''t like being close to me very much. You prefer to be with Gu Beichen, don''t you?" "No!" Jane Mo quickly denied. Shi Shaoqin smiled. He was originally beautiful and charming. At the moment, such a smile, if placed in a normal atmosphere, would surely intoxicate many people. However, at the moment, in Jane Mo''s eyes, there is only danger. And it''s really a sign of danger When Shi Shaoqin found out the danger, Junyan pressed down This time, because her face was imprisoned, Jane Mo had nowhere to escape. But there was begging in her eyes... But she didn''t know that the more she was like this, the more she could arouse men''s desire for conquest and possession. The body was shouting. Shi Shaoqin didn''t care why he was like this. Just at this moment, he suddenly hated Jian mo. even if it was just his recent memory, he would still have an irresistible attachment to Gu Beichen. Even acting! Lips, touched delicate and soft Jane Mo''s tears had overflowed her eyes and slipped down the corners of her eyes. She wanted to turn her head back and forth, but she hated Shi Shaoqin''s imprisonment. She only moved slightly and couldn''t escape completely Tears are already full in the eyes. Jian Mo can only quietly bite his teeth and lips in an attempt to stop Shi Shaoqin''s attack Ah Chen, where are you? Ah Chen Ah Chen, ah Chen A voice kept calling in her heart. The urgency of this moment made Jane Mo have no time to guess why she had such expectations. Small hands kept tearing Shi Shaoqin''s clothes, trying to pull him away. However, not to mention that men and women have other strength, even if they are suppressed at the moment, there is no way to exert their strength. More and more tears are in her eyes. Jian Mo has neglected everything else. Her little hands are crazy tearing and beating Shi Shaoqin. Her resistance completely angered Shi Shaoqin. He got up slightly, and there was no tenderness in his eyes to confuse Jane mo. there was only anger. The hand that imprisoned Jane Mo had been released, but the next moment, it had touched the skirt of her skirt. Jian Mo''s eyes widened. At the same time of the frightened voice of "no", she only heard the sound of "tear and pull" "Ah -" Jane Mo exclaimed. At the same time, only a "bang" was heard. The door was pushed open and hit the wall. There was an arrogant sound. Shi Shaoqin turned back coldly and bloodthirsty. A figure had rushed to him. At the same time, his fist came ''Susu'' with the wind. Shi Shaoqin leaned slightly coldly, and the wind brought by his fist almost passed close to his face. Regardless of anything else, while leaving Shi Shaoqin''s grip, Jian Mo climbed aside and closed his slightly torn collar. The sound of fists and feet ''Bang Bang'' came. Jian Mo didn''t expect it. She just squatted in the corner because of fear, and her tears kept falling That humiliation made her want to die! With a bang, Gu Beichen, who was stuck with Shi Shaoqin, stopped after Mosen joined the battle circle. "Shi Shaoqin, you have broken the rules of the game!" Gu Beichen''s cold face was shrouded in haze, and his eagle eyes were full of anger. Shi Shaoqin looked at Gu Beichen indifferently, "isn''t it?" He said softly and slowly, "my woman and I want to have an intimate relationship. What are the bad rules?" The voice of "Ga Ga" came, and Gu Beichen''s anger had reached a peak, "your woman? Oh, when did you become so shameless?" Shi Shaoqin smiled, as if he didn''t mind Gu Beichen''s words at all. But Morson knew that he was angry. "As long as it''s what I want, everything in this world... Can only be mine!" Shi Shaoqin''s cold and domineering voice was indeed gentle. "But I''m not..." Gu Beichen sneered. "Mo''er, it won''t be!" Shi Shaoqin completely changed his face. Indeed, what he wants, so far... Only one Gu Beichen hasn''t got it. The sound of sobbing came from time to time with suppression. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo squatting in the corner of the wall, and his whole heart was in pain. She is such a proud person, but now, because of him, what kind of situation has she fallen into? Gu Beichen ignored Shi Shaoqin and walked over Mosen tried to stop him, but he pushed him aside with a cruel move. Gu Beichen squatted down in front of Jian Mo and took Jian Mo''s trembling body into his arms. "Mo''er, I''m sorry..." he murmured sadly, gritted his teeth and said, "I''ll take you away... I''ll take you away now!" Chapter 576 Gu Beichen can''t care about anything else. At this moment, he has only one mind Take Mo''er away, no matter how hard and bitter it is, let him come! Too many plays without flaws are flaws. He knew that Shi Shaoqin''s suspicious character would be tempted... But even so, he came a little late. His Mo''er... He said that he would be behind her at any time! But now? She was bullied by Shi Shaoqin, but he couldn''t help it? He closed his eyes painfully. Gu Beichen held Jian Mo tightly, as if to rub her into his body. Then... He can bear and face her pain, or even bear it for her. "Want to take her..." Shi Shaoqin sneered, his narrow eyes slightly raised a sarcastic arc, and his voice was slow and oppressive, "can you do it?" Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes. The eagle''s eyes were full of cold breath. He turned his head and looked up slightly. He sneered at Shang Shi Shaoqin. "In Los Angeles... Why don''t we try?" Shi Shaoqin was not surprised at all. Fighting at home, Gu Beichen will be disappointed if he can''t compete with him for a moment. "I won''t stop you..." Shi Shaoqin smiled. "It''s just that she was injured in the end!" Without much words, Gu Beichen twitched his temples because of the cold, "stone, Shao, Qin!" Gnashing his teeth, Gu Beichen squeezed out his teeth word by word. Gu Beichen didn''t know what Shi Shaoqin was going to do, but he knew... He wasn''t alarmist. He said that Mo''er would be hurt, so something would be hurt. Shi Shaoqin''s good-looking mouth overflowed with a strange smile and a pair of eyes, which were as indifferent as water. However, the deep sea had been stormy and would devour everything at any time. Whether it is Jian Mo''s resistance or Gu Beichen''s appearance at the moment... It seems to make him crazy. He even had an impulse to crush these two people! Together! Jane Mo kept trembling in Gu Beichen''s arms, and the tears of humiliation could not be contained. What they were saying, she didn''t listen to a word, but unconsciously grabbed Gu Beichen, as if afraid that she would leave. Such dependence is instinctive... It doesn''t need memory at all. Gu Beichen held her palm and pressed it slightly, trying to reassure her. At the same time, there are life doubts about her dependence? "What..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and the ink pupil was deep and bottomless. He gently opened his thin lips and said slowly, "... Just come to me!" Then, just as Mosen seemed to find something and took a step forward, Gu Beichen took off his suit coat and put it on Jian mo. Get up, cling to the body and hold Jianmo horizontally. "Chen, have you thought it over?" Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful handsome face showed a trace of coldness. Gu Beichen was not afraid of Shi Shaoqin''s warning, but said leisurely, "you''d better let it go... If you don''t let it go, I''ll take it away!" "What a big tone," Shi Shaoqin didn''t say anything, but Mosen''s face was cold. "Can you take it if you want to?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes'' brush ''looked at Mosen, and his sharp eyes were like a sharp blade, "I can get here before you find it. Do you think it''s so difficult for me to go out?" It was as if Mosen had been beaten in the face. Suddenly, there was a sudden cold all over his body... As soon as Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth, he could come forward and tear Gu Beichen eight pieces. "Don''t worry..." Shi Shaoqin said slowly, "since I can bring Mo''er to Los Angeles, I haven''t thought about it. You haven''t taken any action." He said, laughing at the same time Such a smile, only those who are familiar with him know that it is already the edge of his rage. The more bloodthirsty he is, the more charming he smiles. "No matter what, as long as I face it with Mo''er, what else can stop us?" Gu Beichen hissed coldly, ignoring Shi Shaoqin, holding Jian Mo still trembling, and went out. Shi Shaoqin didn''t move or even move his eyes. He just smiled and said, "face it together?" His eyes darkened. "Are you sure... Mo''er will really face it with you?" Gu Beichen''s steps stagnated, but he just stopped. At last, he didn''t leave anything, so he walked out with Jian Mo in his arms. "Qin Shao?" Morson looked at Shi Shaoqin in surprise, as if he didn''t understand his behavior. A crackling sound broke the silence of the room. Mosen''s face was beaten to one side, and the corners of his mouth were skinned by his teeth, and a trace of blood spilled along the. "There must be something wrong with silence''s medicine," said Shi Shaoqin in a cold voice. "Let murxicha know what''s wrong." "Yes!" Mohsen bowed his eyes respectfully, and there was no resentment on his face. Shi Shaoqin slowly took back his sight, and the corners of his mouth overflowed with the ruthlessness under the treacherous. That kind of insidious, without any words, but the cold air around him made Mosen feel cool from the center of his feet to his heart He moved his lips and wanted to ask Gu Beichen and Jian Mo what to do next. However, when it came to his mouth, he didn''t ask. Qin Shao does things and never leaves room for each other He just warned Gu Beichen like that. Then, what should Qin Shao do next? Mosen didn''t understand and didn''t continue to think about it. He just watched Shi Shaoqin slowly walk to the window and suddenly had an unspeakable feeling... It was like a man who didn''t belong to the world suddenly had the smell of fireworks. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen gently put Jian Mo on the co pilot and fastened her seat belt. Looking at her drooping eyes and clenching her suit tightly, tears fell one by one like broken pearls. Such tears, deeply hit his heart, each one, hit a blood hole. Gu Beichen''s hand was still on the buckle of the seat belt, and his other hand was holding the seat and gradually clenched it up. At this moment, he even had the impulse to kill himself. "Mo''er, I''ll take you out of here first..." Gu Beichen pressed down all his remorse and guilt, tried not to let his emotions write, said softly, closed the co pilot''s door, and then turned around to the driver''s seat. The lights suddenly lit up, the engine started, and the quiet crescent lake was disturbed by a low whimper. The lights crossed the beautiful lake, swept the window of the villa, and left with an angry or treacherous sight "Chen, I want to see..." Shi Shaoqin gently opened his lip flap and said leisurely in a slow voice, "how much can you bear this time?" Chapter 577 Paradise night. There was a trace of loneliness in the blurred box. Li Yunze lay lazily on the sofa, stepped on the front tea table with one foot, and his hand holding red wine gently hung on his bent thighs. The faint and dim light reflected on the wine glass reflects the intoxicating light. At the same time, it is like attracting vampire blood. With the shaking, there is danger everywhere. With age and experience, people will always be less reckless than when they were young, less meaningless and more profound. Raise your hand, look up and pour the red wine in the glass into your mouth at once. Mellow and full-bodied, the aroma of liquor spreads in his mouth. However, for today''s Li Yunze, it seems so bitter. "Does it matter whose child it is? Li Yunze, don''t tell me what you do because of a child..." Why rather arrogant and sarcastic words, like a needle, pierced the heart. Slowly, the liquor scratched down his throat Obviously bitter and astringent, but Li Yunze was not in a hurry to swallow quickly, as if he wanted to feel that taste. Such a large box, gradually filled with a deep breath, but in an instant, it condensed the air together. The "buzzing" vibration of the mobile phone sounded on the tea table, and the screen also lit up. Li Yunze sighed secretly, attached himself, put down the cup, picked up the mobile phone, saw that it was Gu Beichen, frowned slightly, picked it up and put it in his ear, "Beichen?" "Come to the hospital!" Gu Beichen''s concise voice came, "I brought Mo''er." "Ah?" Li Yunze immediately swept away his just gloomy mood, and his whole face was surprised. However, no one answered him, only the "beep beep" hang up tone came from the mobile phone. Li Yunze didn''t have time to think more, so he got up and hurried out "Li Shao, the fruit tray you want..." the waiter with the fruit tray looked at Li Yunze in a daze when he saw his hurried steps. Li Yunze kept on walking, "I''ll send you a gift and write it down first." At the same time, the others had already dodged into the elevator. Li Yunze drove all the way to the hospital, but it took only more than half an hour. When Li Yunze got out of the elevator, he saw Gu Beichen half leaning on the door of VVIP''s ward with both hands, slightly drooping his eyes, and his cold, carved face could not see the slightest expression. "Where are the people?" Li Yunze came up to him, "inside?" Gu Beichen raised his eyes, "sleep." The faint words didn''t have any emotion in others'' ears. However, for Li Yunze, who grew up with Gu Beichen and watched him experience so many things, he heard something fishy. "Did something happen?" Li Yunze asked cautiously. Gu Beichen sighed heavily, "don''t check it now. Wait until she wakes up." Li Yunze nodded. Without going to his office, they went to the rest and waiting area in front. "Did Shi Shaoqin find anything?" Li Yunze frowned. "After doing so much in advance, won''t you still be found?" Gu Beichen rubbed his eyebrows wearily. "Yan Rui''s things should not have been found, but the things that Mo''er''s memory hasn''t disappeared recently are estimated to have been found out." Li Yunze felt a little heavy, "how could he let you bring Jane out?" "The current situation is that Mo''er will be hurt whether he is around me or him..." Gu Beichen said with almost no tone in his voice, "but there is an uncontrollable range around him, and I can at least minimize Mo''er''s damage." "I''m afraid Shi Shaoqin''s madness is beyond people''s control." Li Yunze was worried. "What else can I do?" Gu Beichen smiled bitterly. "Mo''er has always been stronger than me and stronger than I thought... She said, what can''t make it through when two people face things together?" Li Yunze looked at his friend and opened his mouth. At last, he nodded without talking, "Jane Mo can pass." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at Li Yunze deeply, as if he would become firm when he confirmed his words and got his words. The sound of the elevator arriving will be temporarily silent and disturbed. When the elevator door opens, Xiao Jing and Susan come out They looked around and saw Gu Beichen and Li Yunze in the rest waiting area. "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing and Susan came in a little hurry. It was obvious that both of them were panting. Gu Beichen said indifferently: "the media, the Internet... All the channels that can be released are closely watched. As long as there are signs, any news about Mo''er will be stopped in the bud." "Understand..." Xiao Jing answered. Gu Beichen looked at Susan. "Tomorrow, inform the CEOs of all districts and keep an eye on the market. It is estimated that the emperor''s stock market will fluctuate greatly recently." Susan nodded solemnly, "OK." "In addition..." Gu Beichen paused and looked at Xiao Jing again. "Let Xie Haitian and Xiao Qiang stare at the defense system together. Shi Shaoqin may start with the hacker line." Xiao Jing frowned slightly, "I''m afraid Xiaoqiang and Lao Xie can''t keep an eye on their ability..." They lost several online battles. "Prevent it first." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and said faintly, "you let Xiao Nan contact the boss of Xialong. Even if the network is strong, there should be many hackers who can be driven by money in the world." Xiao Jing pondered and nodded, "OK." "Go and be busy..." Xiao Jing and Susan looked at each other, and Susan said, "Chen Shao, we want to see Mrs. Shao..." Gu Beichen didn''t speak immediately. He just looked at the time, thought about it, and nodded, "go." Susan and Xiao Jing nodded and both went to the ward. The space is quiet again, but it is more depressed than just now. "What are you worried about?" Li Yunze asked. Gu Beichen sighed and said with a slight movement at his temples, "I''m afraid it will be too quiet next..." Li Yunze frowned immediately and didn''t quite understand Gu Beichen''s meaning. "I know Shi Shaoqin very well. He won''t threaten me with empty words." Gu Beichen''s cold face is dignified and tight. "If he has actions, he will respond. I''m afraid he''s too quiet, which will keep your heart in a high tension... At the last moment, he just needs a flick to break everything you have." Li Yunze didn''t speak, just patted his friend on the shoulder, "let''s go. It''s estimated that when they go in, Jian Mo will wake up..." Gu Beichen nodded slightly, got up together and walked to the ward Just as they walked to the ward together, suddenly, a sharp scream came from inside. Without time to think, almost instinctively, Gu Beichen squatted and ran ove Chapter 578 "Hoo... Hoo... Hoo..." The sound of big breath was particularly clear and heavy in the quiet ward. The sound of "bang" interrupted the tense atmosphere. Gu Beichen stood at the door of the ward with a frightened face. Xiao Jing twitched at the corner of his mouth, looked at Susan, and then looked at Gu Beichen. "That... Susan just wanted to give the young husband..." he paused and then said, "just cover the quilt, and then wake up." Susan smiled at the corner of her mouth, "Chen Shao, I''m very light..." Gu Beichen looked at the two people with a bad face and didn''t say anything. He just pressed down his inner panic because of worry, walked forward, sat down by the hospital bed and gently took Jian Mo into his arms. The big palm stroked Jane Mo''s back in an attempt to ease her tense mood "Chen Shao, I......" "Nothing." Gu Beichen interrupted Susan, "it''s late. Let''s go back." Xiao Jing and Susan looked at each other, answered, looked at Jian Mo whose mood gradually calmed down, and left the ward with dignity. Li Yunze leaned on the door frame with his arms around his chest, and his face was full of evil spirits. "The mood of pregnant women is easy to be nervous, coupled with what happens at night... She will have the psychology of a cup of bow and snake shadow, which is normal." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but continued to calm Jane Mo''s mood. Li Yunze didn''t speak, and looked at Gu Beichen deeply He doesn''t know whether men and women treat their feelings in the same way, but Beichen is quite frightening if he is really serious. "I''m sorry..." Jane Mo swallowed it secretly and began to speak slowly. "You never have to say sorry to me!" Gu Beichen''s words were very calm, but the ink pupil was as deep as the sea, "you never need to be sorry here." Jane Mo closed her eyes. "I just had a nightmare." "Hmm..." Gu Beichen answered softly, but sighed softly. "Mo''er, if there is no past, it will pass." Jane Mo frowned slightly, gently broke away from Gu Beichen''s embrace and looked at her suspiciously. "Good, bad, willing, unwilling..." Gu Beichen said slowly in a low and magnetic voice, "only you with all your memories can decide how to choose." "Do you have a way?" Jane Mo''s eyes suddenly filled with urgency. She wants to know her past memory, her relationship with Gu Beichen and what happened... She also wants to know what kind of existence Shao Shizhi is to her. Both of them, who had entanglement or entanglement with her, no matter which situation, she didn''t want to be led away inexplicably. "I can''t completely guarantee..." Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze, who was still leaning on the door. Seeing that he nodded slightly, he said, "let Yunze check you first, huh?" Jian Mo nodded subconsciously to Gu Beichen''s line of sight. I trust him unconditionally, but I don''t think much about it at the moment. Li Yunze got up, but didn''t enter the ward. Instead, he turned and went to the nurse station, "inform Dr. Ge to come over." "OK, Li Shao." The nurse answered with a smile and called the Department of gynecology. After a while, Dr. ge of gynecology came up. "Li Shao?" Dr. Ge and Li Yunze said hello, "is the patient awake?" Li Yunze nodded, "aunt Ge, you should be more careful when you check." Dr. Ge glanced at Li Yunze and nodded, "I know. Don''t worry." "Yes." Li Yunze answered and went into Jian Mo''s ward with Dr. Ge. Gu Beichen saw them come in and said to Jian Mo, "I''ll go out and wait, huh?" Jian Mo looked at Li Yunze and Dr. Ge, and then gently nodded to Gu Beichen... Until she saw him out of the ward, and the closed door blocked her sight, she took back her sight and lowered her eyes. When Dr. Ge saw Jian Mo, she was slightly surprised... She just heard Li Yunze say that there was an estimated pregnant woman to be examined in the evening, but she didn''t think it was Gu Beichen''s wife? "Aunt Ge, check it first?" Li Yunze motioned. Dr. Ge restrained his mind, nodded, and together with Li Yunze, pulled over the instrument and began to check Jane mo. Gu Beichen stood in front of the window at the end of the corridor with his hands in his pockets. Looking at the hazy moonlight outside, the eagle''s eyes were calm, but secretly, the undercurrent had surged to the rough waves. Time, a little bit of the past. Standing in the night of Los Angeles, Gu Beichen seemed to be at both ends of the fire, cold and hot for a while. I don''t know how long it has been in the past. Gu Beichen hasn''t changed his posture from beginning to end until there are footsteps behind him. He turned slowly and saw that Li Yunze had come to him. No words, just waiting quietly. "The situation is temporary..." Li Yunze''s voice can''t say whether it''s dignified or relaxed, "... It''s OK." Gu Beichen frowned, "what do you mean it''s OK to see for a while?" "Thirteen weeks of pregnancy, everything is normal." Li Yunze said slowly, "but you also know that after all, Jane Mo was injected with drugs. How about the child? We have to wait for 4D to see." There are not too many words, but Gu Beichen doesn''t hold much hope After being silent for a while, Li Yunze asked, "are you sure you want Jane Mo to recover her memory recently?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but turned around again and fell on the night light in the yard "Beichen," Li Yunze sighed heavily, "do you want to... Wait?" Gu Beichen knows what Li Yunze means. Now Mo''er doesn''t know his pregnancy. If he doesn''t know it after Siwei does it, he won''t be so sad. "Do you think... If she recovers her memory and the child suddenly disappears, will she be sad?" Gu Beichen''s voice was so heavy that people felt a stone on his heart. Li Yunze frowned. "Do you mean she knew she was pregnant before her memory was lost?" "I should know..." Gu Beichen sneered at himself. "Yunze, when Xiaojie, I wasn''t with her. The second one is like this. It''s always just me who let her bear it. Do you understand?" Li Yunze was blocked by his friend''s helpless sadness. "You decide... Maybe, as you said, two people can face it together, no matter how difficult it is." The next day, Los Angeles was still sunny and full of midsummer heat. After waking up, Jane was obviously in good spirits. "Where are we going?" After Jane Mo was stuffed into the car by Gu Beichen, she asked curiously. Gu Beichen put a faint smile on his thin lips, "I''ll take you through the memory, maybe... You won''t be confused." Chapter 579 "Qin Shao..." Mosen opened the door and looked at Shi Shaoqin standing at the window, but pulled the curtain. "Gu Beichen left the hospital with Jian mo." During this time, Qin Shao and Jian mo were together, and Mosen was about to forget such a dark feeling. Now Jian Mo is not in the villa. Has Qin Shao put himself in such darkness again? Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back with complex emotions in his sight Is it because Qin Shao doesn''t let Jian Mo doubt anything, or because Jian Mo is a person who unconsciously eliminates the darkness? At first, Gu Beichen couldn''t go into the darkness. Now Qin Shao plans to go out of the darkness? After a while, Shi Shaoqin seemed to have recovered and asked, "where have you been?" "I didn''t go back to the villa in the middle of the mountain..." Mosen said with drooping eyes. Shi Shaoqin slowly turned around and looked at morsen in a quiet and cold time. The corners of his beautiful mouth gently raised a sarcastic arc, "he really... Can''t wait." Mosen looked up at Shi Shaoqin, as if he couldn''t understand his words. "Jian Mo''s recent memory hasn''t disappeared," Shi Shaoqin turned back and looked at the sparkling crescent lake reflected by the sun from the gap of the curtain. "I''m afraid it''s not that simple if you rely on willpower alone." Morson listened quietly and didn''t answer. Shi Shaoqin''s smile at the corners of his mouth was exuberant. When that smile spread out in his eyes, the surrounding air became cold. "Either Chen found something to curb the efficacy of Jian mo..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was low and dangerous. "Or, there was something we ignored and didn''t find." "Do you need to go to the hospital?" Asked Morson. Shi Shaoqin sneered, "Huakang is Li Yunze''s place. If Chen wants to hide Jian Mo''s physical condition... What do you think is the use of starting with Huakang and Li Yunze?" Mosen lowered his eyes and slowly opened his mouth: "Li Yunze''s twin sister, Li Jinxi''s husband, Chen Xuan... Is the grandson of the Chen family." Shi Shaoqin didn''t answer. Mosen was not sure what he was thinking, and didn''t dare to go on. "Don''t worry..." Shi Shaoqin said leisurely. "The Chen family supports the right wing of country A. they will need a large number of arms in the near future. It''s too simple to let the Chen family not participate or participate." Morson felt a chill all over his body. He clenched his hand and said, "yes!" After answering the voice, he withdrew quietly. What exactly does Qin Shao want to do? Morson looked at the door he had locked up, and his heart was particularly bottomless. If we say that we used to hope Gu Beichen to become the person around him and try to find light in the dark What about now? Mingming directly takes Jian Mo back to the Mo palace, and Gu Beichen is bound to follow. As long as you control Jian Mo, it''s equivalent to controlling Gu Beichen... Why does Qin Shao give up close and seek far? Just for the cat to catch the mouse, is that the block feeling of the game? ¡­¡­ In midsummer, the University of Los Angeles was a little deserted. Although some students did not leave the school, during the summer vacation, especially in the morning, except for the cicadas, it seemed that everything was very quiet. The flowering period of Wutong has come to an end, but the yellow green and rose pink flowers are floating in the sun under the sun. "All over the country, love is a place for you to go to University..." Gu and Jane frowning. "Here, you have a first love... You like to take a walk on this Wutong Road, and talk about life from the east to the West." said. Gu Beichen''s voice was deep, and the eagle''s eyes were far-reaching. "This man," he paused, and the corners of his mouth crossed with self mockery, "is my eldest sister''s child, that is, my nephew." Jane Mo stopped and looked at Gu Beichen in surprise. Gu Beichen looked back at her, motioned for a while, and continued to walk forward without stopping. Jian Mo had a full sense of familiarity since she entered the campus. At this moment, hearing Gu Beichen say so, she found that she had no resistance at all. "I''m just your nephew''s first girlfriend?" Jane Mo grabbed the key point and asked. Gu Beichen stopped slowly, looked back at Jian Mo, who was still standing in place, and smiled slowly, "no..." he said gently, "you became my wife later!" Jane Mo widened her eyes. Her expectation was that even if she had a relationship with Gu Beichen, even if he took her back to her memory, it was impossible to say the result directly. But obviously... What she thinks is different from what Gu Beichen thinks. Gu Beichen lowered his eyes slightly, "isn''t the ring on your finger and the tattoo hidden under the ring the best proof?" Jane Mo subconsciously touched the ring on her finger and didn''t speak. "In fact, you have long suspected that I married you, haven''t you?" When Gu Beichen said this, his mouth was hooked with a evil smile, and his vision was deeper. "Just, you can''t be sure what the marriage between me and you was established... Maybe helpless, maybe forced, or maybe voluntary." Jane Mo was embarrassed to be exposed by others. She secretly bit her teeth and walked forward, "what''s the situation?" Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo deeply. While she was waiting, she gently opened her thin lips, "our beginning... Is your helplessness!" When Jane Mo got such an answer, there was an unconscious loss in her eyes. Gu Beichen didn''t let her go. He raised his hand and gently brushed Jian Mo''s hair. "Do you want to hear your original story?" "Think!" Jane foam can''t wait to say. Gu Beichen slipped his hand, and took the lead of Jane''s left hand with her ring, while rubbing the ring with her finger, and continuing to walk along the Wutong Avenue. Then, she told her about their start in those two years. Until the end of two years, they also reached the end of Wutong Avenue. Tears had stained Jane Mo''s cheeks and wet her eyes. She broke away from Gu Beichen and looked at him with tears. "I fell in love with you, but your first love came back... So we divorced. Then there was the story of Shaoshi and me, didn''t it?" Gu Beichen was not surprised that Jian Mo''s logic would be like this, "I heard... Huaye is going to invest in idol drama recently. Mo''er, are you interested in writing a script?" Jane Mo trembled her eyelashes and looked at Gu Beichen. She couldn''t understand how to say this suddenly. However, when she saw Gu Beichen''s evil smile at the corner of her mouth, she suddenly reacted. Is this person laughing at her ability to make up stories and write scripts? Jane Mo immediately widened her eyes and clenched her hand angrily, "Gu Beichen!" "Call ah Chen..." Gu Beichen said with a smile, at the right time, slowly bullying Jian mo. Jian Mo instinctively retreated, and Gu Beichen walked forward like this... As soon as she retreated and advanced, the speed was not fast, but she was oppressed. Suddenly The stone that was back in the foam was blocked by the Wutong tree. When she tried to move to the edge, she was caught by the sudden hand of Beichen. "Those two years..." Gu Beichen''s voice was low and dumb, and Jun''s face was even closer, "what we often do is..." Jane Mo waited for a long time, but there was no more text. She stared and asked, "what is it..." Gu Beichen''s thin lips suddenly pressed down and covered the delicate lips that wanted to talk with his hot eyes Chapter 580 "Well..." Gu Beichen doesn''t let Jian Mo have room to retreat. His lips have begun to attack the city and tell her what they often do in those two years! Jane Mo began to resist, but in a few seconds, she fell into the heat of Gu Beichen''s overbearing madness, and even... Cooperated with his rhythm. The resistant hand gradually turned into pulling Gu Beichen''s sleeve, as if he fell down for fear that he didn''t have enough strength. Lips and tongues hissing, licking, sucking... Entangled, each lingering is sentimental and straight into the most throbbing position of the heart. The wind, blowing gently, came the soft sound of leaves'' clattering ''. Cicadas chirped merrily, as if they had also watched an intoxicating play, cheerfully inspired and excited. The sun shines through the branches and leaves, mottled on the two people who are about to lose control... It''s beautiful and outrageous, and people can''t bear to disturb. Gu Beichen couldn''t help it. When he met the soft lips and the soft sweet tongue, he couldn''t control it. He could only deepen the strong bath hope driven by his body. "Well..." Jane Mo felt that she was dying and was almost out of breath... Her breath could not supply her with enough oxygen. Gu Beichen left her tender lips with some dissatisfaction. Jian Mo was breathing in an instant and gasped. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen''s voice was hoarse and depressed, and a pair of eagle eyes stared at Jian Mo tightly. "You didn''t think... Why did you resist when he moved you? But I... wouldn''t you?" The voice of doubt made Jane Mo''s thoughts slightly close. She raised her eyes to Gu Beichen''s line of sight and said slowly, "that can only prove that I really loved you, but it doesn''t mean that I have any practical relationship with you." "Oh?" Gu Beichen said softly. His eyes were full of danger. Jane Mo was confused by him like this. In fact, as Gu Beichen said, the tattoo on the ground of the ring has explained a lot... Moreover, she not only didn''t resist his touch, but even had a bath hope aroused by greed. Gu Beichen did not force Jane to foam, but sighed, and his eyes crossed the flowers that were open on the Wutong tree. He sighed lightly, pulled Jane''s hand and turned back. When the car was parked in the parking lot of the emperor club, Gu Beichen just said, "go into the world you used to be, Mo''er..." he looked at Jian Mo, "have a good experience." When he finished, he got off the bus first. Jian Mo looked at his figure and felt a little heavy. She untied her seat belt and got out of the car "Ah Chen..." after Jane Mo shouted, the corners of her mouth slightly pricked, "when you were on the beach, you didn''t seem to want me to remember so much?" She asked with some hesitation. Because she was nervous, her hands kept wringing. Gu Beichen looked down at Jian Mo''s wringing hand and slowly opened his mouth: "someone told me that when two people are together, they should face it together... There''s no reason for one person to bear it." Jane Mo frowned. Gu Beichen briefly hooked up the corner of his smiling mouth, came forward and took Jian Mo''s twisted hand. His voice was low and magnetic and said, "it doesn''t make sense. Something happened... I''ve been bearing it silently all the time, haven''t I?" "..." Jian Mo understood Gu Beichen''s meaning. "I haven''t remembered before, don''t take advantage of me." Gu Beichen''s sight became deep and bottomless. I''m afraid Jane Mo didn''t know at the moment. When she said this, her black pupil twinkled with cunning and even some arrogance She''s supposed to be her character, isn''t she? Gu Beichen pulled Jian Mo into the elevator and went directly to the 18th floor of the club. How many people have been surprised by this "hell" rendered by black and red, the crazy and silent design under the extreme of human nature? And this design is also a shining point of his relationship with Mo''er, isn''t it? Jane Mo''s steps were a little slow. When she was in such an environment, it seemed as if a voice or image kept breaking through her and running out. "I want to change the design..." "With the growth of age, there will be more and more problems in life..." "I won''t let you down... I may not be the best designer, but I have my brilliance!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Jian Mo''s footsteps stopped slowly. She frowned and looked around at the design of the 18th floor. Her breathing was not smooth gradually. She thought hard, but when she thought deeply, she only felt the position of her heart flustered and dull. Jane Mo hurriedly covered her chest. The feeling of palpitation made her uncomfortable and even suffocated. "Mo''er?" Gu Beichen''s face changed as soon as he saw it, and hurried forward to hold Jian mo. Jane Mo was very sad. Even her face became a little pale "I, I''m fine..." Jane Mo gasped slightly, closed her eyes, calmed her mood, and her face began to get better. Gu Beichen''s cold face was completely worried, but it was also clear that Jian Mo''s hard work was inevitable to stimulate memory. "Here is..." Jane Mo asked after calming her mood. "You designed it." Gu Beichen said, "it''s also the application design that you go to UCL to study design." Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen, as if she was affirming this sentence, and seemed to want to find something in his sight. "Let''s go to the next place..." Jane Mo said quietly. Gu Beichen quietly looked at Jian Mo, "that''s all for today. There are too many. It may backfire." "No!" "Jane, I want to refuse..." Good, bad, she wants to remember! "Mo''er..." "Ah Chen, I want to remember, I want to remember my memory." Some begged with a voice that could not be refused. Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo deeply. After a while, he just nodded. Car, walking on the streets of Los Angeles. Cars come and go, highlighting the unique charm and prosperity of this international metropolis. Jian Mo looked at the passing street view outside the window. Unlike the seaside city, she was obviously familiar with the city. She didn''t know if she could remember it all, but there was a gap in her heart. ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin stood outside the door of Jian Mo''s bedroom, holding a mobile phone with a dial in his hand, listening to the sweet bell coming from inside, and slightly frowned with a sword eyebrow. After pressing off the phone, Shi Shaoqin went in and looked at the mobile phone safely placed on the bedside table, with a strange smile on the corner of his mouth. Originally, he wanted to test how Chen and Jian Mo delivered the news, but it hasn''t been used yet. Attached, pick up the phone Shi Shaoqin''s sight was already dark without a trace of light. He turned left and right, and he threw it back to the bedside table. At the right time, the mobile phone rings. Shi Shaoqin picked it up indifferently and listened to Mosen''s voice, "Qin Shao, Gu Beichen just took Jian Mo to the emperor''s club." "What about now?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice is casual, but it shows the pressure of pressing people''s hearts. Mohsen was slightly silent and just said, "look at the direction. I should have gone to lanze garden." "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, and his smile gradually spread to the bottom of his eyes, "he can''t wait..." Mosen shivered inexplicably across the phone. I don''t know why. He always felt that Qin Shao was acting strangely this time. Chapter 581 The car stopped at lanzeyuan villa. Not only is Jian Mo looking around here, but also Gu Beichen. After Jian Mo moved out of here, Gu Beichen seldom came back... Except for the people who clean regularly, no one has lived here for more than four years, almost five years. Also because there was no living in the back, the furnishings and everything here were the same as when Jane Mo left. "Husband, why did you come back so early today?" "Good morning, husband..." "Gu Beichen, you beast... Well... I beg for mercy, I beg for mercy..." "My husband is the best..." The voice of laughter exploded in her head with charm. Jane Mo stood in the living room, and many memories couldn''t wait to rush out. However, it was only some incomplete words, but Jian Mo still couldn''t remember what it was. Jian Mo went up the stairs step by step. Gu Beichen stood at the door without moving... Just looking at her, he couldn''t help thinking of what Li Yunze said last night. "Now progesterone hormone is secreted most frequently. Beichen, if you want to remind Jane mo of anything, you should stimulate her mood and fuck him at the place where her body recovers most!" Li Yunze''s mouth was not obstructed, and even showed evil charm. Gu Beichen glanced at him with a fierce look. Suddenly, Li Yunze left the corner of his mouth and sighed. "These days, if you give advice, you can''t thank it. You have to be threatened..." Li Yunze sighed, but he still said seriously, "I''m not kidding!" "Can she now?" Gu Beichen looked back and asked. Li Yunze smiled and mocked his good friend without hiding. "Jian Mo can basically accept things between men and women safely now, but..." He deliberately paused and waited for Gu Beichen to ask him. Gu Beichen looked at him coldly and didn''t speak, so he directly looked at Li Yunze with his eyes. Li Yunze touched his nose somewhat uninteresting and said leisurely, "it''s just that you''ve been forbidden to take a bath for so long. Can you hold it?" "..." Gu Beichen coldly withdrew his sight, and he knew that Li Yunze had nothing good in his mouth. Jian Mo stood on the second floor, looked left and right, and finally fell on the door of a bedroom. "Is this... The place where we lived in those two years?" Asked Jane Mo, turning around. However, at the moment of seeing Gu Beichen, she suddenly forgot her reaction and just looked at it Gu Beichen stood at the door, and the warm sunshine projected in from the outside, plating a halo around him. "Husband, are you back?" A figure ran down the stairs happily, rushed into the man''s arms, and kissed him on tiptoe at the corner of his mouth. It looked like a coquettish and angry look of asking for favor. The man put his hand around the woman''s slender waist and rotated, which had put the woman against one side of the wall, "why, don''t you like me coming back?" "How could it?" The woman flapped her long eyelashes, and her exquisite makeup, which had not been unloaded, looked attractive and charming in the sunlight. "It''s too late for me to be happy when my husband comes back with me!" "Oh?" The man whispered and asked, "how can I be happy?" The woman was also direct. She didn''t say anything. She hooked the man''s neck and took the initiative to kiss him The heart beat a little fast. Jian Mo seemed to watch a love film in front of her. Even Gu Beichen didn''t notice it when he went upstairs. The face gradually became hot. Jane Mo''s eyes are still staring at the door, the man and woman who are unreal, kissing, and even... Their bodies are about to fit together. "Mo''er?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and looked at her red face with a little doubt. "Ah?" Jane Mo suddenly woke up and looked at Gu Beichen in some embarrassment. I don''t know whether it''s because the picture just imagined is too ambiguous, or because she feels that the man is Gu Beichen and the woman is herself In short, when looking at Gu Beichen, her face seemed to burn, hot. "I, you..." Jane Mo didn''t know what to say, but her heartbeat seemed to break through her chest, which was a little uncomfortable. However, it was different from the discomfort just at the club, which made her whole body start to heat up. The thick fingers gently stroked Jian Mo''s cheek, which surprised her body and subconsciously retreated a little. "Think of the things I used to be here with you?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes are so deep that people can''t see the bottom, but he seems to see the inside of others. "I..." Jane Mo was a little nervous, "I didn''t." She said stiffly, "I don''t remember the past. How can I remember it?" Gu Beichen''s evil spirit hooked the lower lip corner, "there is no silver three hundred Liang here?" Jane Mo was stunned and stared at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen bullied Jian Mo and imprisoned her by the railing. "Mo''er, do you want... Let me think for you?" "Ah?" Jane didn''t react for a moment. Gu Beichen''s smile at the corners of his mouth became dangerous. Unlike Shi Shaoqin''s sullen, he had more exciting feelings. "For example," Gu Gu''s mouth was deep and deep, and "Beichen''s Wutong road did not finish things at that time." "Gu Beichen, don''t you... Ah!" Jane Mo didn''t finish her words, because Gu Beichen''s face deceived her and screamed. The heartbeat is like beating a drum, ''Dong Dong Dong'' is beating continuously. Jian Mo''s breathing began to become rapid, because the picture that she had just "imagined" came out. At the moment, Gu Beichen''s deception made her body hot and dry uncontrollably. Looking at her like this, Gu Beichen is afraid that even Liu Xiahui can''t control it. Besides, this is his wife and the woman he loves. The body screams because of fanaticism. The silence under depression will only make it out of control when it breaks out. Jian Mo looks at Gu Beichen getting closer and closer. His dangerous face forgets the reaction, but his heart beats faster and faster It''s hot and explosive. Chapter 582 The heat in the room is getting hotter and hotter There was nothing but heavy breathing. Gu Beichen attacked frantically, and Jian Mo responded while bearing it. However, before the deepest love, Gu Beichen didn''t give her more excitement. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo couldn''t help shouting. The dryness and heat in her body drove and controlled the instinct at the end of her soul. She couldn''t help welcoming him, hoping to get more. Gu Beichen tried his best to suppress the fanaticism of shouting in his body. After all, Jian Mo is now pregnant. Although, after three months, it is basically safe The heat continued. When Jane Mo found that she couldn''t get more, she became more and more confused. Because of this, the body follows the consciousness and emits more and more things that belong to women and motherhood alone. The heavy curtains cover the sun. In the bedroom, it''s like late at night Jane Mo was so tired that at the last moment, she was too tired to withstand Gu Beichen''s last blow and collapsed on the bed... She had fallen asleep before her mind had dispersed the love bath. Once the bed, the familiar way, and even the greedy arms... Everything makes Jane Mo instinctively relax. She didn''t seem to fall asleep all at once. Just before she fell asleep, at least she thought of one thing. Resist Shao Shi''s contact, but cater to Gu Beichen and take the initiative Women are emotional animals. For more than 90% of women, they must have feelings for men before they are willing to have close physical contact. And at least... They don''t hate each other. What is the missing memory? What happened between her, Shao Shi and Gu Beichen? Jane can''t sleep with foam all the time ¡­¡­ On the road outside lanzeyuan, a low-key luxury car stopped at the roadside. Morson sat in the driver''s seat, glanced inside his eyes and glanced at the time on the vehicle display. It has been two hours since Gu Beichen and Jian Mo entered lanze garden On the back seat of the car, Shi Shaoqin placed a laptop on his leg. The screen was full of strings composed of numbers and English. It was so complex that people couldn''t understand what it was. He didn''t speak, even... Quiet as if he didn''t exist at all. Morson looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror. For Qin Shao, who couldn''t understand more and more, the only thing he had to do now was to wait quietly. Looking out of the window again, Mosen''s mouth scratched fiercely Even if you don''t know what Qin Shao wants to do, you can imagine that if Gu Beichen and Jian Mo have anything at the moment, they must have violated the bottom line of Qin Shao''s heart, right? Slightly narrowed his eyes, Mosen coldly took back his eyes and sat there. His indifferent face made people unable to understand his mind at the moment. I don''t know how long it took. After a long time, Mosen sat a little stiff, and there was a faint voice of Shi Shaoqin behind him. "How long has it been?" Morson looked at the time. "Three hours have passed." "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin obviously didn''t realize that it had been so long. He glanced, "there are so many memories here..." Morson looked at Shi Shaoqin from the rearview mirror and felt that the air in the narrow space in the car was compressed together. Shi Shaoqin calmly took back his sight, took his mobile phone, called out a number and dialed out, "if I don''t have to be tracked back, I''ll break through the protective line and spread things... Is there a problem?" There was a slight silence on the phone. "There should be no problem." "Should I?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, with the force of danger in his voice. The other party sighed, "Qin Shao, you should know that Gu Beichen must be prepared this time..." "I just want him to prepare, don''t I?" Shi Shaoqin asked back, and put a thin smile on the corner of his mouth, "or... How can the game be fun?" I was on guard, but I was still broken... Such a sense of gap must be very interesting. Unfortunately, he may not be able to see the first moment when Chen changed his face. "I see." Some frivolous but joking voice came from the mobile phone, "it will be seen by more than 80% of people." Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly. Without saying anything, he hung up the phone. Turn your head and look at the gate of lanze garden Shi Shaoqin''s eyes become deep... Chen, I hope you will like this gift I gave you. While thinking, a touch of emotion crossed, with Shi Shaoqin''s unknowingly sour feeling... Even, the anger of forbearance and deliberate neglect gradually rose in his body. "Go back..." Shi Shaoqin slowly opened his mouth while taking back his sight. Morson nodded. "Yes!" The car left lanzeyuan with a low engine sound, but in a moment... It returned a secluded place here. Jane Mo is tired and still asleep. Gu Beichen is sleeping with his eyes closed, feeling the dryness and heat of his body while his skin is close to him. He can''t control it. "Um" a cry came. Jian Mo turned his body, buried his face in Gu Beichen''s chest and continued to sleep. She was sleeping soundly, but this move was painful for Gu Beichen, a normal man. I had to bear it for fear that her body couldn''t stand it... At this time, the woman slept well. Once she turned over, one hand was still on the key part The guy who couldn''t resist the temptation immediately began to jump around with his head held high, trying to find the most comfortable place to accommodate it. "Hey..." Gu Beichen sighed and murmured, "what a grinding goblin." Then he was suddenly stunned and laughed because of his words "Husband, are you going to say now..." Jane Mo drew on Gu Beichen''s chest gently with her fingers around the circle, "... You grinding goblin?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "why should I say that?" Jane Mo looked serious. "Aren''t all these small relationships like this? The man can''t stand the temptation of the woman, so I have to say... You''re really a grinding goblin!" "Oh?" Gu Beichen said softly, and his eyes were cunning. "It seems that I didn''t say... Because your temptation is not enough!" Jane Mo wanted to pick Dou Gu Beichen, but she didn''t want to be molested. There''s no solution... People have been pressed by Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s smile gradually spread. He slowly opened his eyes, and there was a soft spoil in the bottom of his eyes. Jane Mo went deep into his heart, starting from this bit by bit. Gently hold Jian Mo close to yourself. It''s hard to feel physically... No matter how hard you feel with her in your arms, you have to bear it! Thinking like this, somewhere was obviously unhappy and jumped dissatisfied to protest. Chapter 583 "God..." a scream came from Xiangyu design department. In the afternoon, everyone was a little listless. They were awakened by this cry. "What''s the ghost''s name? Mo Xiaoya roared angrily," are you scared to death? " "God, watch the news!" The yeller said excitedly. People looked at him with doubts, then took out their mobile phones and opened the news interface Then, inverted sound absorption, unbelievable voice, questioning voice... The rise of miscellaneous one after another has made the whole design department a little chaotic. "Isn''t that possible?" Xiang night said in a daze that an egg could be stuffed into his mouth. Mu Xiaoran kept fanning his eyes, didn''t speak, just stared at the picture "Look at the computer..." suddenly someone shouted. Instinctive consciousness controls action, and everyone looks at their own computer. No matter what interface you stayed in before, now it has become the same That is, the man buried his head on Jian Mo''s neck and kissed. The picture can clearly see Jian Mo''s face... Because of the angle, it seems that Jian Mo is enjoying the man''s caress. "Black..." Da Xiong looked at the screen and said, "can''t the photos be synthetic?" "It must be synthetic!" Mu Xiaoran was the first to gnash his teeth angrily. "Sister Mo has left. These people still take sister Mo out to talk about things. Are they people?" "But it is reported that... Jane Mo is pretending to die!" Someone said quietly. He stared at the speaker that night, "you think you''re making a TV series and pretending to die... You''re sick!" The man shrugged, not arguing Everyone in the design department knows that if someone talks about Jian Mo, the first one to jump out is either mu Xiaoran or Xiang night. They are all from the sister Protection Alliance. However, such news can be contained. When all electronic devices mediated by signal transmission are hacked, it is difficult to block the public. No matter whether the photo is from P or not, when people talk more, it will naturally become true. The most important thing is... What the whole report says is the same as what it is. It is full of pictures and texts. Even those who know the inside story are about to think it is true. Li Yunze called Gu Beichen, but no one answered. He directly called Xiao Jing again, "what''s the situation? Hasn''t it been prevented?" "Shi Shaoqin''s hackers are too powerful..." Xiao Jing''s voice was a little worried. He controlled the car and drove quickly to lanzeyuan. "We prevented many lines, but we were confused by the virus he sent for a few minutes, and then..." Then what? No need to say. Li Yunze frowned. Jian Mo is really alive now, and such a report is too much slander for her. A fickle woman even approached Beichen deliberately for a man, and then pretended to die after reaching her goal The result is that no matter how Beichen deals with it, Jane Mo can''t get rid of the dirt at all. In the future, as long as there is news of Jian Mo, everyone will think of this report Believe it or not is one thing, but one thing, when most of them are talking, the fake comes true. "Why didn''t anyone answer Beichen''s phone?" Li Yunze asked anxiously. "I''m going to lanze garden. I think it''s over there." Li Yunze listened and helped his forehead... He probably guessed what Gu Beichen and Jian mo were doing. After all, he came up with the idea! That''s good. One moment, you and I mingled. The next moment, the scandal came out... Shi Shaoqin thought it was intentional. Really pick the time! Gu Nanyi sat in the office and was originally interviewed by his daughter Luo Xiaomi''s magazine. When the computer was hacked and such a report appeared, both mother and daughter were stunned. "Mom, this... Isn''t it true?" Luo Xiaomi swallowed and asked. Gu Nanyi stared at Luo Xiaomi unhappily. "Your little uncle came back from a business trip yesterday. Today, there is such a report... It seems that his opponent P came out." Then she looked at the photographer. "Didn''t you say this is the best image processing in your magazine?" As soon as Luo Xiaomi heard this, he immediately made clear Gu Nanyi''s meaning and hurriedly waved to the cameraman, "David, come and see if there is any trace of P in this picture?" David nodded, imported the picture into the processor and began to view Gu Nanyi shook hands and took his mobile phone to the window to call Gu Beichen, but no one answered "What''s going on?" Gu Nanyi looked at his mobile phone suspiciously. He didn''t know how Gu Beichen, who always keeps his mobile phone, didn''t answer the phone. "There''s no trace of P in this picture..." David said after checking. "It''s either the original picture or the top master P''s... I can''t see it." As soon as Luo Xiaomi listened, he immediately stared at David, "it''s useless to use you!" "Alas..." "Hum!" Luo Xiaomi didn''t give David a chance to speak and ran to Gu Nanyi. "Mom... Aunt, are you really not dead?" Gu Nanyi glanced at Luo Xiaomi and said angrily, "how do I know?" "If my little aunt is really not dead... It''s good!" Luo Xiaomi chuckled, "anyway, I don''t believe this report. A smart man like my little uncle hasn''t been cheated by the cunning woman of Shen Chu. If such a person is really like my little aunt, how can I cheat my little uncle?" Gu Nanyi frowned and his face was a little heavy Suddenly, she was glad that her grandmother had left, or... No matter true or false, how angry and sad she was to see the news? ¡­¡­ Xiao Jing looked at the clothes scattered from the first floor to the second floor, and the corners of his mouth twitched Although Chen Shao and his wife are dry firewood with fire, is it too fierce? The sound of "buzzing" came in time with a dull sound... Xiao Jing looked at the suit coat at the entrance of the stairs. He was a little helpless. He stepped forward and touched his mobile phone. Seeing that it was Gu Ci, Xiao Jingshen sighed and answered, "Miss, Chen Shao is busy at the moment." "Is it true about Jane Mo?" Gu Ci''s voice was a little dignified. "I don''t think either I or you have the right to say anything about this for the time being..." Xiao Jing didn''t admit it or deny it. "You''d better wait for Chen Shao to say it later..." without giving Gu CI a chance to speak, he continued, "I still have something here. See you again, miss." He hung up when the words fell. Xiao Jing thought about whether to go upstairs to interrupt the two people''s good deeds. After all, things have happened. It doesn''t matter much whether it''s early or late. At the right time, the door rang softly. Xiao Jing looked up and saw Gu Beichen coming out wrapped in his nightgown "Chen Shao?" Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing''s face and frowned slightly, "is something wrong?" "You know?" Xiao Jing was surprised. Gu Beichen shook his head. "Just know Shi Shaoqin..." he said, and he had walked down the stairs. "Tell me, what did he do?" Xiao Jing said the matter again and asked, "Chen Shao, what are you going to do next?" "What if the world doesn''t believe her?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil became deep, and his arrogant voice slowly overflowed his thin lips, "I believe she... Will also let everyone believe with my belief!" Chapter 584 Public opinion is like a mountain to be pressed down, becoming more and more unscrupulous. Even if Gu Beichen is about to cover the sky with one hand in Los Angeles, it is easy to seal the mouth of all the media, but it is obviously wishful thinking to block the public''s mouth. When hackers occupy all the screens The big screens, mobile phones, computers in the shopping malls... All of the time, Xiao Jing already knew that this storm would eventually leave a stain on Jian Mo''s life. No matter how the final truth is clarified, people who like gossip are more willing to discuss the black history of Jian mo. "Tut Tut, this Jian mo... Is really capable." Gu Yuan took a sip of coffee and looked at Gu CI sitting opposite her. "It''s lucky that my father took my mother abroad. If I didn''t see the news... I guess I could faint on the spot." Gu CI frowned and looked sad, "is Jane really alive?" She wondered, "who died?" "Who knows?" Gu Yuan put down her coffee cup. "In this world, there are people who look like... Coincidence." Gu Ci''s face was a little bad, and she stared at Gu Yuan obliquely. "But elder sister... You should be happy!" Gu Yuan''s voice was a little strange. Gu CI looked at Gu Yuan incomprehensibly. "Jane Mo is having such a thing now. Is it true or false? What am I happy about?" "If Jane Mo is still alive, she may wake up!" Gu Yuan''s voice became more and more strange. Gu Ci was stunned, then reacted to what Gu Yuan said, and immediately pulled her face, "Zixiao was hurt by this woman. If I can, I hope to stay away from Zixiao." "Why, you don''t want Zixiao to wake up?" "I......" Gu Ci was speechless for a moment, and finally snorted angrily. Gu Yuan sighed, "Hey, think about Beichen. Zixiao''s girlfriend also provoked... However, there is still a problem with this Jane." She glanced at the newspaper headline. "Look, this woman is born to play with men." Gu Ci''s face was black, and he stood up, took his bag and wanted to leave. "Elder sister..." Gu Yuan shouted to Gu Ci, "I advise you to look closely at the shares in Zixiao''s hand. Don''t look back and let some people cheat." Gu CI frowned and looked back and said, "Zixiao is like this now. Even if you want to cheat... You can''t sign." She snorted coldly, "Gu Yuan, is your mind on the family or that share?" "Elder sister, I don''t like to hear that." "Don''t listen if you don''t like it," Gu CI said coldly. "Now everyone cares about Beichen, but you think about shares... I advise you not to think about what doesn''t belong to you. Look at your second uncle, if Beichen is cruel, he won''t give you any kindness." Words fell, she coldly took back her eyes and left with steps. Gu Yuan didn''t expect Gu Ci to say so. She immediately changed her face... If she hadn''t been in public, I''m afraid she would have lost her manners. Gu CI sat in the car and said it was impossible not to be affected by Gu Yuan. Zixiao is now like this. Although Beichen has some responsibilities, Jian Mo is the root cause... Even if she died at the beginning, but now she is alive, she still appears in front of the public in this way. Gu Ci, who was more and more angry, called Gu Beichen again... This time, someone answered. "Elder sister!" Gu Beichen''s voice was so indifferent. "Did you see the news?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly. Gu CI listened to the calm voice and said softly, "is Jane really alive?" "Well," Gu Beichen was still calm, "he''s by my side now." "What?" Gu CI didn''t react for a moment. Gu Beichen was silent for a few seconds and gave Gu CI some buffer time before slowly opening his mouth: "Mo''er is still alive. My recent so-called business trip is to find her..." Gu CI heard something wrong in Gu Beichen''s tone and gently said, "Beichen, Jian Mo is..." "Didn''t you guess?" Gu Beichen''s voice was a little cold. "Jane Mo was kidnapped?" Gu CI swallowed secretly, "is it... The people who kidnapped you?" "I don''t care what happened, I hope you understand... No matter what you think or want to do, the fact that Jane Mo is my wife can''t be changed." Gu Beichen''s voice is indisputable. Mingming is only explaining the facts, but Gu CI feels the hostility pervaded in Gu Beichen from the phone, as if... If his family doesn''t support him and destroys the Gu family, he won''t frown. "Only he has the right to judge Zixiao..." Gu Beichen said again, "elder sister, are you right?" Gu CI sighed, "Beichen..." "Elder sister, I can intervene in the matter of Chu group." Gu Beichen glanced at the door lightly. After Xiao Jing opened the door, Gu Nanyi came in, "just watch Jian Mo''s business." Gu CI immediately changed his face. His face was unbelievable How well she knows Beichen? She knows best that the deficit of Chu group can last for several years because of Zixiao''s kindness... But she and tianqin know that sooner or later the emperor will let go. Now, in order not to put pressure on Jian Mo, Beichen actually compromised. "I have something else here. I''ll talk later." After Gu Beichen said that, he hung up the phone and looked at Gu Nanyi who came over and asked, "the third sister is also for Mo''er?" "I''ll come and see if Jian Mo is really alive..." Gu Nanyi smiled skillfully, "Beichen, congratulations." "Congratulations?" Gu Beichen is light. Gu Nanyi smiled more and more brightly, "isn''t Jane Mo''s life the happiest thing for you?" A rhetorical question, Gu Beichen''s thin lips gradually overflowed with a smile, "thank you, third sister." Gu Nanyi raised her eyes slightly and saw Jane foam coming out of the bedroom and standing at the entrance of the stairs. She smiled and said, "it''s nice that my sister-in-law is still alive." Jane moped her lower lip, a little confused. Gu Nanyi is a smart man. He immediately sees something wrong and asks Gu Beichen. "Mo''er''s memory is damaged..." Gu Beichen has got up, went upstairs, stood still in front of Jian Mo, and gently tucked her messy hair with her hand. Gu Nanyi looked at all this quietly, and the smile at the corners of his mouth became a little blurred No matter what happens, I''m afraid no outsiders can intervene in the world of Beichen and Jianmo? After all, Beichen is so persistent in love with this woman called Jian mo "Hungry or not?" Gu Beichen asked lightly, "go clean up and have dinner later, huh?" Jian Mo''s face turned red. When Gu Beichen''s fingers didn''t know whether they touched her skin intentionally or unintentionally, she even jumped up warmly. Looking at her shy appearance, Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, slightly attached to her body, and asked in her ear, "or do you say... You don''t want to eat, you want to eat me?" Chapter 585 As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she blushed like a cooked shrimp and stared at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen looked at her coquettish and angry appearance, and the smile from the corners of his mouth slowly spread, "go... Susan has sent the clothes, right in the dressing room." "Yes." Jane Mo subconsciously responded and didn''t find it at all. For such an arrangement, she should reflect that she is strange. Jane Mo tilted her head and Gu Nanyi smiled, nodded slightly, turned and went to the bedroom From beginning to end, I didn''t find it. Gu Beichen''s line of sight was deep and couldn''t see the bottom. Until the door of the bedroom was closed, Gu Beichen took back his sight and turned down the stairs. "Doesn''t look like something?" Gu Nanyi frowned. At least Jian Mo motioned to her to take it, but he couldn''t see it completely. Gu Beichen looked back and laughed at himself when he found no one. "I can''t tell you some things now. In short... Mo''er, I won''t let go." Gu Nanyi laughed. "Let me take a message to my eldest sister and second sister?" Although she was in doubt, she was clearly sure. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and his thin lips opened slowly: "if I don''t know where my position is, I don''t mind straightening them out." Gu Nanyi examines Gu Beichen. How long has it been since he didn''t see such an inhumane sense of distance on Beichen''s face? As if... In this world, only Jian Mo is his relative. But why not? It is not her, the eldest and second sisters, nor her father and mother, but Jane Mo who can walk with him all his life! "Don''t worry, you have control there, don''t you?" When Gu Nanyi just came in, he heard Gu Beichen''s words to Gu Ci, "as for the second sister, if there is interest, there is restraint." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but narrowed his eyes slightly. "Don''t give me this expression..." Gu Nanyi glanced discontentedly. "I''m gone, and the little girl is still waiting for my news." When it comes to Luo Xiaomi, Gu Nanyi smiles, "Xiaomi doesn''t dare to come. She says she''s afraid you''ll spill your anger on her..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and saw Gu Nanyi''s cunning face, and then left smartly. Xiao Jing sent Gu Nanyi back and shrugged, "when has the third lady become so gossip..." "Ah Chen, help..." Jane Mo timely opened the door and shouted. When she saw Xiao Jing, she was surprised and immediately returned to the bedroom. "I didn''t see anything!" Xiao Jing immediately raised his hand, "I swear!" Gu Beichen glanced at him lightly, walked upstairs on one side, and said indifferently: "deduct 50% of the year-end bonus!" "Chen Shao, you can''t blame me..." Xiao Jing wailed and finally murmured bitterly, "Mom, it''s my year-end bonus to follow you husband and wife... I''m innocent, okay?" All the way, Xiao Jing was resentful. From time to time, I look in the rearview mirror and feel more resentment on my face. For the outside reports, Jane Mo doesn''t know At the moment, she only knows one thing, that is... Although she doesn''t remember the previous things, she seems to have no pressure after going crazy with Gu Beichen. Drooping his eyes, looking at his hands being held by Da, Gu Beichen whispered in his ears. Jian Mo only felt happy in his heart. "Chen Shao, madam Shao, here we are!" Xiao Jing said with a curl of his mouth. His eyes are full. Get out of the car and go to love. I still need to buy dog food! Along the way, the ambiguity in the car almost killed his single dog Jane Mo didn''t care that Xiao Jing began to call her "little lady". In other words, subconsciously, she also recognized it and didn''t think it was wrong When I opened the door and got out of the car, it was not a fancy restaurant, but a small restaurant called ''another meal''. Jian Mo looked around. In the setting sun, there were already a lot of guests coming in, which seemed particularly warm. "Did I like it here before?" Jane Mo''s voice was a little blurred. Gu Beichen took her hand and smiled. "Well, you say it''s comfortable here..." Jane nodded. "I feel like this when I''m standing here... It''s like the most homely feeling." The little couple didn''t want to cook, so they came to a small restaurant for a meal... It was economical and experienced the most simple life. The setting sun penetrated the middle of the two faces and plated each other with a halo. The light sound of "click" crossed, and a paparazzi was unknown in the corner. This scene was photographed. "Go in..." Gu Beichen said softly. Jian Mo smiled and nodded, letting Gu Beichen pull her. Can just lift a step, Gu Beichen suddenly stopped. Jane Mo subconsciously stopped, "what''s the matter?" Gu Beichen looked down at Jian Mo''s shoes, then bent his knees and squatted down Jane Mo hung down along his eyes and found that she didn''t know when her shoelaces had opened. Just came out, she just wore a cotton and linen dress and canvas shoes with shoelaces... It seemed that she stepped on it when she got off the bus, but she didn''t notice at that time. The setting sun is infinitely good. Just after work, there are not many people coming to dinner nearby. Gu Beichen was a celebrity in Los Angeles, and at that time, Jane Mo, who washed everyone''s sight, almost no one didn''t know her. At the moment, I saw two people here. Gradually, people stopped to watch and take pictures... They seemed to be surrounded. Xiao Jing didn''t care, but looked at the scene ahead There''s no need to do anything deliberately. Chen Shao can use his gentle hands to block all the harm to Jian Mo and hold up a sky at the same time, can''t he? "God, it''s so romantic..." a high school student held his mobile phone. "It''s most popular for men to tie shoes for women." "Flower maniac, you... Don''t know what to do for everyone!" The next classmate said. "You have to be willing to do it..." another girl raised her eyebrows. "Men like Gu Beichen care if they are willing to do it." "Also..." "Seriously, just look at their appearance, they are really good match..." "Unfortunately, Jane Mo is too dissatisfied. Chen Shao is so excellent. She is still busy..." As everyone whispered, Gu Beichen had tied his shoelaces and got up. Ignoring other people''s eyes, he took Jian Mo''s hand and entered the restaurant. Jane Mo let her pull her, and her face was a little bad. "What''s the matter, huh?" Gu Beichen asked carefully. Jane shook her head at the corner of her mouth, "it''s all right." Gu Beichen stopped. The eagle''s eyes looked around deeply, and suddenly took Jian Mo directly into his arms. His voice was not big or small, but he said in an audible tone: "this woman is the only one I have identified in Gu Beichen''s life..." His eagle eyes narrowed slightly and said coldly, "gossip stops at the wise man. I don''t care!" Jian Mo glanced at Gu Beichen. The soft sunset hit his cold, carved face. At that moment... The palpitation in his heart rolled wildly with surging familiarity. It''s as if there''s something you don''t want to break, just break it! Chapter 586 Gu Beichen coldly hugged Jian Mo and went up to the second floor. As for the outside world, under the current situation, what gossip can slander him? "Did something happen?" Jane Mo asked after sitting down. Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at her, "it''s all right." Fang Xilan came in with tea, because she received a call from Xiao Jing in advance. She was not surprised by Jian mo. Moreover, although she didn''t meet many times, she didn''t think Jane Mo was the kind of person reported today. "Haven''t been here for a long time..." Fang Xilan said with a smile while looking at Jian mo. "recently, he pushed two special dishes. Last time, he told Chen Shao to come and have a try with you." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and said to Xi Lan, "thank you!" Fang Xilan smiled and shook his head. "You drink tea first. I''ll prepare it. It''ll be ready in a minute." With that, she left xiaoyajian alone. Sure enough, after a while, all the special dishes came up. Jane Mo looked at the food in front of her and subconsciously felt that she wouldn''t like it "You have lost your memory and your preferences have changed." Gu Beichen seemed to see through her. "Eat and see, maybe it''s not as annoying as you think." Jane morhu opened her mouth and nodded Looking at the food Gu Beichen put on her plate, she subconsciously resisted, but when she put it into her mouth, she felt very happy again. "Mo''er, don''t resist what I''m giving you now..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo deeply, "you may remember slowly." Jane Mo''s heart throbbed suddenly, gently fanned her eyelashes and nodded. Gu Beichen''s thin lips were shallow, and he started to stir the shrimp, poured the sauce and handed it to Jian Mo''s lips... All the movements were familiar and natural. Jane Mo instinctively opened her mouth and her nose was sour at the moment of chewing. She lowered her eyes in a hurry to prevent her emotions from leaking out, and covered it with slow chewing... Until she swallowed it. "Did I love you before?" Jane Mo asked after being silent. Gu Beichen stopped the action in his hand, "HMM." Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at him. The fundus of her eyes was slightly moist, "what about you?" "With your heart!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight and gradually became deep. Jian Mo only felt his nose more sour. "I''m with Shao Shi and don''t even remember you... You must be very sad?" Gu Beichen was silent and said slowly, "it''s false not to be sad... But it''s more guilt." Jane Mo frowned and didn''t understand. "Eat first..." Gu Beichen gave a deep sign with his eyes, and didn''t intend to explain. Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen for a while, as if she knew he didn''t intend to explain, so she nodded and continued to eat. Jane Mo ate a lot of this meal. She thought she was not interested in these meals. However, as she ate, she opened her appetite and had some support. "So full..." Jian Mo looked satisfied. "I feel like I haven''t eaten so full for a long time." "Take a walk?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and said, "digest it." "Yes!" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight and became deep. Just that expression and reaction, he almost thought... His Mo''er recovered his memory. Holding Jian Mo''s hand, Gu Beichen walked on the sidewalk like this. Xiao Jing drove his car and followed them slowly by the roadside. He could see them at a short distance without disturbing them too much. If Shi Shaoqin is also watching somewhere, Xiao Jing thinks... What is more perfect than this moment? Morson felt the strange smell in the car, inch by inch, which oppressed people and made them unable to breathe. As soon as tonight''s report came out, Qin Shao''s face remained calm. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and even tied her shoelaces in public... Gu Beichen did these intimate and identity losing things without any sense of violation. However, Mosen can''t guess whether Qin Shao is angry with Gu Beichen''s behavior or whether Jian Mo subconsciously prefers to contact Gu Beichen. "Qin Shao, will you continue to follow?" Asked Morson with a stiff head. Shi Shaoqin looked at the two people holding hands in front. They didn''t know what to say. Their narrow eyes gradually narrowed I don''t know what Gu Beichen said to Jian mo. when Jian Mo looked at him, a smile rippled on his face. Shi Shaoqin has never seen such a smile. "Follow..." The cold words seemed to come out of hell. Morson looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror with some apprehension. Some light from the street lamp came in and hit Shi Shaoqin in the face. It was unspeakable. ¡­¡­ The walk between lovers is like a road that will be finished soon. Gu Beichen pointed to the front and asked, "do you know where that is?" Jane Mo looked in the direction he pointed... It seemed like a big square, but there were not many people. "Square?" Jane Mo asked suspiciously, "but why is there no one?" The night is very comfortable. Shouldn''t there be a lot of people? "Martial law..." Gu Beichen said. Jane Mo frowned and looked confused... But she didn''t ask much, just followed Gu Beichen to the square. Recently, she has known that this man''s status is not simple Since it''s to restore her memory, I''m afraid something happened to them here? Jane Mo thought and became excited because of expectation. Her steps were a little hasty and couldn''t wait. When we arrived at Los Angeles square, we saw a white grand piano in the center, surrounded by soft lights, which made people feel like a dream. Jane Mo tried to recall, but she didn''t feel very deep here At least, I felt strong without going to Luoda, lanzeyuan and another meal! Looking at Gu Beichen suspiciously, Jian Mo waited for the story he wanted to tell At the right time, the sound of the piano sounded, not a soft tune, with a clear rhythm of joy. Jane Mo was stunned for a moment In fact, she just thought Gu Beichen was going to play a song for her. But obviously, there is someone behind the piano Jian Mo looked back at Gu Beichen from the piano in a slightly embarrassed way, and saw that he made a gentleman''s salute to himself. Jane Mo didn''t react for a moment. Gu Beichen motioned to her and looked at her waiting hand. Jane Mo reacted and put her hand on Gu Beichen''s hand Gu Beichen took advantage of the situation, grabbed her waist, and looked at her with deep eyes. His thin lips shallow raised an evil radian, "Tango..." he was slightly attached to his body, and with the music, he bent down slightly holding Jian Mo''s waist At the right time, a low and magnetic voice came, "tonight... You and I dance!" Chapter 587 The stirring piano music has a strong rhythm. Jian Mo rotates, picks and slides in Gu Beichen''s hand Each action fits each other as if it had been practiced thousands of times. Jane Mo has nothing else in the world at the moment. In her eyes, there is only the cold and carved handsome face of Gu Beichen under the night lamp, the deep eyes and the hot flame. Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo in every move. He still remembered that the last time they danced Tango together, they were officially exposed in front of the media and the public and received the admiration and blessing of thousands of people. Now, on the cusp of the storm... He still tells people all over the world in this way. He, Gu Beichen... Because of a Jian Mo, she is the only one who wants to dance together in this life! Jian Mo thoroughly integrated into Gu Beichen''s world and moved with his heart. She stared at him, her eyes blurred to hot, then blurred... As if she had experienced centuries. Under the hazy drizzle, she was slightly drunk and had no dancing partner. She danced a tango with the music on the square alone. She has no partner and doesn''t need a partner. Tango is the most suitable dance, not the one in her mind. She doesn''t want to give her hand to him "I can only accompany you in your dance!" "I can only accompany you in your dance..." "I can only accompany you in your dance..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± What sound is madly ringing in my mind, over and over again. Jane Mo wanted to see who was talking, but in the end, all her thoughts converged into Gu Beichen''s deep condensation on her at the moment Suddenly, Gu Beichen lifted Jian Mo''s waist slightly. She instinctively curled up on one leg and opened her arms After a rotation, Gu Beichen held a backhand. While Jian Mo rowed back with one arm, his feet also slid forward, and the man half leaned back. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo stared up and down in the most classic way of Tango ending, just like the tango song when grandma Gu''s birthday was first played. The tango dance music stirred by the piano gradually becomes soft, and the soft tone seems to exaggerate the sweetness in the air at the moment. "Once, you were here... Dancing alone." Gu Beichen''s voice came in a low voice. Under the piano music, it was particularly magnetic, "at that time, I was thinking that I was the only one to accompany you in your dance..." With a bang, something exploded in my mind, as if I could break through the obstacles in an instant and scurry around. Jane Mo forgot her reaction and quietly looked at Gu Beichen. At this moment, she had only one hope... She hoped that time would stop, the world would be static, and everything would stay at this moment. "Kiss... Kiss... Kiss..." There seems to be a noisy voice in my ear, mixed with flash... All this is not familiar. Gu Beichen slowly attached himself. Jian Mo didn''t move, so he looked at his face closer and closer to his line of sight... Until there was no distance. The delicate and soft lips are wrapped, and the hissing friction on the lips outlines the moving lines under the tip of the tongue. Everything comes naturally, and there is no need to deliberately... It''s like crazy possession in lanze garden in the afternoon. Su Jun''s slender fingers drifted on the black-and-white keys and looked at the pair of kissing people with complex eyes. There was bitterness in the bottom of his eyes, but the corners of his mouth smiled softly. She''s really not dead... What else can he ask for? Gu Beichen called him last night and arranged all this tonight. Whether it''s him or Gu Beichen, plus foam... Even if the market is cleared, how can no one see it in this vast place? Besides, there are all pervasive paparazzi Mo Mo lost his memory. Gu Beichen didn''t say too clearly, but he also guessed a few points. I''m afraid there''s a lot of human possibility, isn''t it? A tango was originally held out by the media. Now it''s another tango, accompanied by his accompaniment... Even if you don''t like it or are jealous, Mo Mo always has his silent protection and Gu Beichen''s firm love. Su Jun''s smile from the corner of his mouth became deeper and deeper. Su Jun looked back and fell in front, but his fingers didn''t stop... Just turned his tone. Sweet piano music has never been published... But it has been performed on someone''s mobile phone for four years! The lingering kiss confused Jane Mo''s thoughts However, the piano music at the moment made her heart find a trace of peace in excitement. This song is so familiar As if I had heard it a thousand times in my life! "Um" a cry, Jane Mo some eat pain frown. Gu Beichen slowly let go of Jian Mo and saw her waiting for herself angrily. The ink pupil was slightly deep. "When you kiss me, do you still have thoughts about other things?" "I didn''t..." Jane Mo immediately retorted. "No?" Gu Beichen''s sight became dangerous. "Didn''t you think of anything else, or didn''t you get distracted when kissing me?" Jane Mo frowned. "Aren''t your two questions the same?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips were slightly hooked, revealing a touch of evil charm, "well, the response was good!" Jane Mo glared at Beichen and wanted to get up Gu Beichen held her waist and helped her up, but he didn''t let go of her. He just said in a low voice, "do you want to see the piano player?" "Is that ok?" Jane Mo asked without even thinking about it. When she saw Gu Beichen''s mouth with a joking smile, she immediately reacted, and her face turned red, "I..." "You don''t have to explain..." Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and walked to the grand piano. "I know, you''re afraid I''ll misunderstand." "No!" Jane Mo pulled her hand, but she didn''t break free. "Don''t stick gold on her face." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deep, and the smile on his thin lips became deeper and deeper Even though she hasn''t remembered it yet, her words and actions have begun to move closer to the past, haven''t they? Does it mean... She''s about to remember everything? Gu Beichen said that he was not worried at all. It was false Remember everything, they need to face not only Shi Shaoqin, but also the death of Jian Zhanfeng! The sound of the piano stopped slowly because Gu Beichen and Jian Mo walked in. Su Junli also stood up and looked at Jian Mo with warm eyes, "Mo Mo, welcome back..." Jian Mo''s footsteps gradually stopped. She looked at Su Jun Li. Even though the memory was vacant and forgotten, when she saw such warm and soft eyes, the slow palpitation gradually overflowed. "Jun Li..." Jian Mo murmured. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo in surprise, and his eyes were deep. Su Junli was also surprised. He seemed unsure and looked at Gu Beichen "Mo''er, do you remember?" Gu Beichen''s voice trembled slightly, but he tried to keep calm and asked. Chapter 588 Gu Beichen''s eyes stared at Jian Mo tightly, without momentary dissociation, and didn''t want to let go of any of her expressions. Su Junli didn''t speak, his sight was soft, but he looked at Jian Mo with doubt The night breeze gently brushed my face, with the heat of midsummer, but also with the slight coolness of night Time seemed to be at a standstill. Gu Beichen and Su Junli were waiting. Jian Mo also lowered his eyes, as if thinking about something. After a while, Jian Mo''s lips gradually pricked up. She slowly raised her eyes, first crossed Su Jun, and then looked at Gu Beichen... There was a loss under guilt in the bottom of her eyes. Gu Beichen had something in his heart, but Junyan didn''t show it at all "It''s all right," the soft and low voice spilled over his thin lips. Gu Beichen gently stirred the hair of Jian Mo, which was disturbed by the wind, "take your time, huh?" The more Gu Beichen is like this, the more sad Jian Mo is... But it is also clear that he is more sad than her at the moment. Maybe it''s not because she doesn''t remember at the moment, but... Because she''s sad. "Long time no see..." Su Jun left his mouth and broke the sadness at this moment. "It''s nice to see you again." Jian Mo looked at Su Junli. She didn''t know what relationship she had with him, but she could shout his name when she saw him Is this a kind of injury to Gu Beichen? Thinking like this, Jian Mo felt more and more depressed. However, he didn''t want Gu Beichen to see it. He couldn''t help but raise his mouth slightly... But he didn''t say anything. She didn''t know what to say, because she didn''t remember anything except the name just now "Why don''t you take a seat at the cafe ahead?" Gu Beichen inquired. Jane Mo glanced at him and nodded. The three walked to the square cafe in front of them, and they didn''t care what people were watching outside The gossip between the three people didn''t start today. It was as early as the period of hidden marriage. What does the media say? Who cares now? In this world, nothing spreads faster than gossip Especially in an international metropolis like Los Angeles, the nose of the media is more sensitive than the smell of dogs. Coupled with the current network transmission speed, it is not surprising that Jian Mo has made the headlines again. Su Junli is a talented pianist with a world-renowned music family. It is difficult to get a ticket for his concert... In addition to charity and concert, it is a luxury to want to hear his solo. But today... He is playing in the open-air square like a street performer, only for the dance music of Gu Beichen and Jian mo. Many people are wondering whether Su Junli is in love with Jian Mo as speculated by the media before. If he loves Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, is he stupid or infatuated? If he only wants to see the happiness he loves, he will be happy? For Su Junli... The media is equipped with a fascinating but catchy title. If you are well, it will be sunny, and if you are happy, it will be the end! Soft European and American classic pure music floats in the cafe. The outside world is so chaotic that it has nothing to do with the three people talking and laughing at the moment. In the dim and soft light, Gu Beichen just had a faint smile in his mouth. From time to time, he looked at Jian Mo on one side, and his eyes always overflowed with a spoiled and soft smile. Such Gu Beichen is unfamiliar to the public In everyone''s eyes, Gu Beichen is the president of the emperor and the decisive king after taking over the family business. Indifference is his voice, and overbearing is his characteristic... Has anyone ever seen him spoil like this? The media ravaged people''s attention, and soon the people were divided into two camps. Those who condemn Jian Mo madly because of indecent photos, and those who envy Jian Mo because of Gu Beichen''s doting But no matter what kind, the last mistake seems to be added to Jian mo. "The sky in Los Angeles is going to change..." Chen Xuan hugged Li Jinxi from behind and looked at the outside deeply. Thousands of lights, how many people live their own unhappy life, but comment on the lives of others? Li Jinxi leaned against Chen Xuanhuai. "At the beginning, the four young men in Los Angeles were in the army to the south, and the Dragon owl didn''t often return to Los Angeles... The two left, alas." Li Jinxi sighed heavily and turned a circle in Chen Xuan''s arms, "Chen Xuan, I saw why Ning that day." "And then?" Chen Xuan shrugged. He had also heard about Li Yunze and he Yining. Li Jinxi''s face was not good, "then?" She stared angrily, "who knows... Anyway, I think it''s disturbing." "Why do you care so much... Yunze has been playing for so many years, but there are no leaves left in the world. Why?" "Why?" Li Jinxi asked reflexively. Chen Xuan sighed helplessly, "think slowly..." "You..." Li Jinxi immediately stared. But Chen Xuan didn''t give her a chance to speak and kissed her directly if she wanted to get angry In fact, it''s easy for a man to deal with a woman. When she wants to get angry, he goes directly to her. Where does she have the strength to talk to you? If you still have strength, go straight to her. She doesn''t have strength to talk... Just become a little sheep in your arms! Night, full of all kinds of life, is getting deeper and deeper. Obviously, because Jane Mo appears in front of the public again, many people are busy tonight Morson dared not breathe for fear of interrupting the darkness of the room and causing trouble. "You said..." Shi Shaoqin suddenly said, "what will be the headlines tomorrow?" Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin and twitched at the corners of his mouth. He didn''t dare to answer. "Is it Jane Mo or Chen''s behavior towards her tonight?" Shi Shaoqin turned to look at morsen and waited for his answer. Mosen lowered his eyes. "Not necessarily..." he hesitated and then said, "it may be splicing layout." "That''s the comparison?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, and the smile on the corner of his mouth caught up. However, the smile was gloomy, stiff in the corners of his mouth and never spread It was almost eleven o''clock when Gu Beichen, Jian Mo and Su Jun left. Although I slept all afternoon, because I was tossed by Gu Beichen and I was still pregnant... Physically, I was still sleepy. Xiao Jing drove to the villa in the middle of the mountain Gu Beichen originally planned to go back to the apartment in runzeyuan, but when he thought about it, he felt that it was not as safe as halfway up the mountain. After all, although he can guess Shi Shaoqin, who knows if he will be nervous and do something. "Go to bed early after washing, huh?" Gu Beichen gently dropped a kiss on Jian Mo''s forehead, "I still have some work to deal with." Jane murmured, nodded, then turned and went upstairs. No one LED and said nothing, but... Jane Mo went to the master bedroom on the second floor without any hesitation. "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing said leisurely until the bedroom door was closed. "Is this man''s subconscious too powerful?" Chapter 589 Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing and then took back his sight. His thin lips gently said, "Xiao Jing, am I in too hurry?" "Ah?" Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen, saw that he also looked over, grinned, shrugged and said, "Chen Shao, I''m not sure what I''m doing. It''s really not like your style... I''m a little uncomfortable." Gu Beichen turned around and took back his indifferent sight. Xiao Jing held back his smile and went out with Gu Beichen to walk in the villa yard "Chen Shao, is tomorrow''s media report really non-interference?" Xiao Jing asked. Gu Beichen walked slowly with his hands in his pockets, and the night light pulled his figure long. "No matter," Gu Beichen said calmly, "the media can''t control it, but the people can''t. The more suppressed it is, it has become the talk capital of everyone." Xiao Jing sighed darkly, "but Shi Shaoqin is there..." "He won''t interfere with the media today." Gu Beichen said with great certainty, "conceited people like to walk on the edge of the cliff most of the time." "Although I''m in Los Angeles, I still feel uneasy..." Xiao Jing said and frowned. Gu Beichen stopped and looked at Xiao Jing. "If he could only control the range of Mo palace, he wouldn''t bring Mo''er to Los Angeles... He just wanted to make me more painful." In the center of his power and influence, he was also manipulated by him. This is what Shi Shaoqin wanted to see. But Gu Beichen didn''t think of it at the moment The game is always a game. Even if we all know each other''s means and game routines, we can''t master the variables in the game... A variable that neither he nor Shi Shaoqin can control. ¡­¡­ The waves beat against the sand and rocks, making a roar of discontent. When Shi juechi stood by the beach and let the sea rush over, he wet his trouser legs. "Never less..." the sample shouted stiffly. Shi Jue Chi looked back and didn''t move. The sample is like a hill, stepping on the beach and making deep footprints step by step, "Siyue asked me to tell you that Qin Shao has gone to Los Angeles." "Huh?" Shi juechi didn''t seem to hear clearly. The sample was reluctant to say it for the second time. After muttering, he said: "Qin Shao returned to Los Angeles with Jian Mo and Gu Beichen..." After hearing this, Shi Juxi immediately changed his face. Without saying anything, he turned and walked to the ancient castle. While walking, he also dialed Shi Shaoqin''s phone. "Shi Shaoqin, is that what you told me to keep the game going?" As soon as the phone was connected, Shi juechi roared like eating explosives. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slowly and then opened slowly... During this period, for Shi juechi, the long time made him unable to suppress his anger. "Juechi, are you questioning me now?" The dangerous sound spilled over the beautiful lips, which was extremely cold. Shi Juxi gritted his teeth, "I''m not questioning you, you''re forcing me!" "What did I force you to do?" Shi Shaoqin sneered, "don''t forget... Who is the Sovereign of Mo palace." Shi juechi stopped and looked sad. After a long time, he asked coldly, "brother, are you talking to me now?" Shi Shaoqin''s heart suddenly shook Because of the twins, Shi juechi seldom called him "brother", but once he shouted every time, it showed that his anger had reached the point where it could not be eliminated. When was the last time? It seems that he secretly sent food to Chen... When he confronted him! On Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful handsome face, there was an unspeakable complex emotion cracking, "what if it''s the public?" "What else do we... Have to say?" Shi Jue Chi Leng hissed, "anyway, you and I know that some things are horizontal in the middle, sooner or later." Disappointed, Shi juechi hung up the phone without giving Shi Shaoqin any chance to speak. The air is filled with anger that has not been seen for a long time. It doesn''t need to hide and bear, and it''s ready to explode. Morson swallowed it secretly How long has it been? It has been a long time since there was such a big fire between Qin Shao and jueshao. Gu Beichen again Morson''s eyes sank, and his hands gradually clenched. ¡­¡­ Night, for Jane Mo, there has never been peace. She thought a lot of things had happened and she couldn''t sleep... But on that bed, I don''t know why, I fell asleep before I knew what happened today. When the morning light penetrates the curtains that are not completely closed and falls in the bedroom... Jane Mo turns over and cries in her nose. After a few minutes, Jane turned over again and said, "husband... Good morning!" Suddenly Jane Mo suddenly opened her eyes. She didn''t move, but her pupils began to spread and stared aside Empty, no one! However, the thoughts in my mind burst out like breaking the gate. Breathing... Gradually becomes rapid. Finally, because the nasal breath could not meet the frequency, she opened her mouth slightly and vomited... The heart was contracting sharply. Confused thoughts stirred her and couldn''t sort it out. Jian Mo''s hand gently grabbed it aside and slowly flattened it Nose, uncontrollably sour. The eyes became more and more red. After a layer of water mist filled the bottom of the eyes, the complex sadness came up uncontrollably. Tears, falling down along the corners of the eyes, dripping on the pillow towel after hot contact with the skin. The corners of the mouth are smiling, which seems to be moved, but also seems to be the samsara under persistence Jane Mo bit her lower lip, took a deep breath and raised her eyes. She lay flat and forced her tears back bit by bit. After a while, Jane Mo slowly calmed down. She took a deep breath, sat up and rolled out of bed. She didn''t wash, she couldn''t even wait a minute She misses him! Think of the man she loves with all her strength. She doesn''t want to stay for a moment... It seems that this is wasting time. Because she got up in a hurry, Jane Mo even forgot to wear slippers, so she strode out barefoot Suddenly opened the door, and the quiet space made her a little flustered. First, she went to the railing and saw no one downstairs. Subconsciously, she ran to the study... She even forgot to knock on the door. Suddenly pushed away, it was more quiet inside. She is still sleeping. According to ah Chen''s temperament, she can''t go to the company at this time... Even if there is something to deal with, she must be in the study. But... No one. Jane Mo ran back to the room to find her cell phone, but she went into the bedroom and suddenly remembered... She doesn''t have communication equipment now. Turn around and run downstairs quickly... I want to call Gu Beichen with my landline. As soon as the talent arrived downstairs, Gu Beichen came out of the kitchen with a plate in his hand At that moment, Jane Mo forgot her reaction and just stared at him... Move, don''t move! Chapter 590 The corners of Jian Mo''s mouth gradually pricked up, and eyelash feather trembled slightly with a frequency beyond her control... She looked at Gu Beichen standing there like this. At that moment, she was not happy, but heartbroken. In her mind was everything in Binhai city. Although the memory axis seemed to be still chaotic, he looked astringently at her and Shaoshi "interacting". Leaving everything behind, even... Accepting Shaoshi''s injury, just wanted to be by her side. Jane Mo just stared at Gu Beichen and didn''t move At the moment, her heart was extremely sad, perhaps because she was extremely sad. On the contrary, her expression was not at all... It was like being stunned. Gu Beichen put down the plate in his hand, and his sight had fallen on Jian Mo''s feet. At that moment, Jianmei frowned. "Why did you come down without shoes?" Gu Beichen blamed with some dissatisfaction, but in his voice, he was really distressed. "Although it''s summer, there''s air conditioning in the house, isn''t the floor cool?" At the same time, Gu Beichen had already arrived at Jian Mo and, unable to help himself, picked her up... His carved face was even more annoyed. Jane Mo didn''t say anything, but her nose was sour and looked at Gu Beichen''s angular side face... He carried her upstairs. Gently put it on the bed, took the slippers, gently wiped Jane foam, and then put it on her Gu Beichen just squatted there and looked up at Jian Mo, who was always stunned. "What''s the matter, huh?" The soft and low voice overflowed the thin lips, and Gu Beichen asked with a light frown. Jane Mo knew that he didn''t find that she remembered Maybe he didn''t find it, but after last night, he didn''t dare to give himself too much hope. He is a man who devises strategies and changes everything... But now? But become cautious Jane Mo''s lips, heart pumping, let her breathing become heavy. Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a soothing smile, "have you dreamed? Or haven''t you slept well?" Jane Mo shook her head Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Jian Mo deeply, stared at her deeply for a while, then smiled and comforted, "then go wash first, and then go downstairs for dinner, huh?" Jane nodded instinctively. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo like this, as if he had pressed a stone in his heart, but his face didn''t overflow heavy, and he was a spoiled smile from beginning to end. He got up, gently kissed Jian Mo on the forehead, and then turned to go out "Ah Chen..." With a gentle sound, Gu Beichen''s heart trembled. He turned and looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, "what''s the matter?" Jane Mo looked at her. At that moment, she wanted to rush over, hold him and tell him... She remembered everything. But the reality is "Nothing." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and shook her head. Gu Beichen smiled without the slightest reproach. "I''m waiting for you downstairs for breakfast." "Yes." Jane Mo nodded and watched Gu Beichen go out until the door closed. She slowly lowered her eyes. Gu Beichen stood at the door of the bedroom, frowning slightly, and his eyes became deep. I looked back... Although I couldn''t see anything. He gazed at the closed bedroom door for a while, then took back his sight, walked down the stairs with steady steps and went straight into the kitchen. "Chen Shao, is Mrs. Shao awake?" Aunt Luo put down her kitchen knife and asked. Gu Beichen nodded, went to the stove, looked at the stewed soup, and then hit the juice and hot milk. Aunt Luo looked at Gu Beichen''s actions, both gratified and heavy. When she came in to prepare breakfast at dawn, she saw the kitchen light on... When she came in, she saw her tall figure busy under the light. And on the processing table, there was a mess Chen Shao is very reassuring in all aspects, except cooking... That''s really not good at it. However, from last night to this morning, how many ingredients did he use? He kept failing at the beginning to make breakfast this morning? She wanted to help, but unfortunately, Chen Shao wouldn''t let her intervene. Only one sentence was given to her: I want to do something just for her to try and work hard. Aunt Luo cried at that time. It''s a great thing that Mrs. Shao is still alive. However, Mrs. Shao doesn''t remember all of them... It doesn''t matter, but how can Chen Shao not remember? Gu Beichen''s figure is busy in the kitchen. She doesn''t find aunt Luo standing there alone and sighing secretly When everything was ready and carried out, Jane Mo packed up and came down from upstairs. The clothes are hers. Yesterday Gu Beichen also asked Susan to prepare some clothes for the season. In fact, when Jian Mo is at home, she usually wears casual clothes because she wants to draw design drawings Just like now, a casual olive green cotton linen skirt is refreshing everywhere. "Eat..." "Yes!" Jane Mo sat down at the table, in a fixed position. Gu Beichen looked at him. She looked at him blankly, "what''s the matter? Can''t you sit here?" Gu Beichen smiled, "how can it?" With a smile, Jane took the milk Gu Beichen handed her, drank it, and began to eat breakfast silently "I''ll go to the company to deal with something later." Gu Beichen said, "come back to dinner with you at noon, huh?" "Can I go with you?" Jian Mo raised her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen timidly. She said softly, "I don''t want to be here alone..." It will be busy to go back to the company today. There will be a transnational video conference in the morning. The time will not be short Gu Beichen wondered if Jane Mo would feel bored when she went. "If not, forget it..." Jane Mo lowered her eyes, and there was a trace of loss in her voice. Where did Gu Beichen see her like this? "OK." Immediately, he gently agreed. Jane Mo immediately raised her eyes and smiled at Gu Beichen This smile doesn''t matter, but the morning light just shines on her cheek through the French window... Adding a trace of charming tenderness to the bright and pure smile. Gu Beichen just looked at it like this. What does it matter whether he remembers it or not? As long as she is happy! When Xiao Jing came, Gu Beichen was explaining something to Aunt Luo. Jian Mo went upstairs to change her clothes. "Chen, you can go..." Gu Beichen looked at the second floor, "wait a minute." Xiao Jing frowned slightly, "young lady, too?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered casually and didn''t care. Xiao Jing grinned secretly and wanted to remind Gu Beichen... At the meeting this morning, someone was bored outside. Did Chen have little thought in the meeting? But Xiao Jing didn''t correct him. After all... His year-end bonus was against Mrs. Shao. He''d better shut up. Thinking, Jane Mo had changed her clothes and went downstairs. White short sleeved shirt with some bubble sleeves, a pair of seven point pencil pants... Short hair that has passed the ear has also been cleaned up. For a moment, not only Gu Beichen was deeply in sight, but even Xiao Jing stared. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing''s crazy voice lowered, "why do I have the feeling of... Returning to the past?" Chapter 591 Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but the eagle''s eyes moved deeper and deeper with the figure until Jian Mo stood in front of them "I..." Jane was a little nervous. "Isn''t this right for me?" Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth. Jian Mo is a temperament beauty with good figure... Such a woman sells cute and becomes an imperial sister. Appropriate, how can it be inappropriate? "No..." Gu Beichen said softly. Jane Mo still scratched her pants a little nervously. "I think... It''s to go to your company. It should be a little more formal." Gu Beichen came forward and held Jian Mo''s hand, "well, your idea is right." Hearing his approval, Jane Mo immediately smiled... It''s like a child who has done something he hasn''t done, but has been performed and praised by adults under fear. Gu Beichen went to the shoe cabinet and took a pair of white seven point high sandals decorated with crystal. He squatted down. Regardless of aunt Luo and Xiao Jing, he calmly and naturally changed shoes for Jian Mo himself. Jane Mo''s feet shrunk slightly Gu Beichen looked up at her with doubts in his eyes. Jane Mo secretly glanced at Xiao Jing in her sight and said in a stuffy voice, "not very good." "How?" Gu Beichen smiled, then went on to grab Jian Mo''s feet, changed her shoes and said, "in ancient times, a woman''s feet could only be seen and touched by her husband... Isn''t this my exclusive right?" Jane Mo''s heart suddenly burst into flowers, and even some couldn''t help but want to Hold it! Jane froze and held back, but Xiao Jing was about to vomit I''m so young. I haven''t heard your disgusting tenderness for a long time. Even if I deduct the year-end bonus, I''ll admit it. Jian Mo held the table aside and looked at Gu Beichen changing her shoes His technique is not skilled, even a little clumsy, but because of this... He can go straight to the deepest part of her heart, can''t he? Xiao Jing drove all the way to the emperor group. After the battle between Gu Beichen and Gu mohuai, this obvious landmark building in Los Angeles has finally become a standing beast, overlooking the true nature of the world at any time. The car directly enters the underground parking lot. The media reporters surrounded outside can only catch Gu Beichen''s car crazily Fortunately for some, the lens still sweeps into the inside after the reflective treatment of the car glass. "Chen Shao has a woman around her..." "Is it Jane Mo?" "Chen Shao even came to the company with? This is not in line with the design of cold and domineering people when he works?" "A man''s ultimate human design is a woman..." "That''s right!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± One by one, the reporters could only rely on the little news they had left and hurriedly called their editorial offices to try to write all kinds of news that won the attention of the public. Jane Mo has not been back for 48 hours, but she has made headlines in all media in Los Angeles. On the one hand, while saying that Gu Beichen is infatuated and does not regret, they speculate about who the man in the indecent photo is... On the other hand, they are asking for the psychological shadow area where Jian Mo drifts between the two men at the moment. However, all this has no meaning to Jian Mo, who has basically cut off the fundamental contact with the outside world. "Chen Shao..." Susan heard the elevator ring and came out holding the folder. When she saw Jane Mo, she was obviously stunned. Then she smiled and said hello to her. "You''re busy..." Jane Mo is very clever. "I''ll read in the tea room." Gu Beichen''s meeting really can''t be delayed. It''s related to people''s livelihood. He can''t be capricious. "Xiao Jing..." "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing stepped forward and waited for orders. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, "go to Shang Junhao and get books on basic architectural design..." "OK." Xiao Jing smiled at Jian Mo, turned and entered the elevator again. "When I''m bored or sleepy, I''ll have a rest. I''ve finished the meeting..." "I''m not a child. Go to the meeting." Jane Mo hurriedly interrupted Gu Beichen''s words and grinned secretly. Why didn''t she know that this man had a mother-in-law side? Gu Beichen raised his thin lips, nodded, motioned Susan, and led her to the office. Jane Mo didn''t refuse Susan to send her to the tea room. After watching her make flower tea for herself, she said "thank you"! "Go and be busy..." Susan nodded with a smile and turned out. Jane Mo turned around in the tea room and finally walked to the coffee machine. Her fingers crossed gently, and the corners of her mouth overflowed with a smile from her heart. The reason why human beings can''t go smoothly is just because they hope to find the end point of their own destruction in the rough... Isn''t it? The morning time is quiet and pleasant for Jian Mo and busy for Gu Beichen. They are just separated by a lounge, but they seem to feel each other... No matter looking at the QR code on the computer and drawing Jian Mo, or Gu Beichen in a meeting, they think they are with each other, and their hearts are quiet. "The next thing, everyone should take their own responsibility..." Gu Beichen''s eyes are indifferent, but it makes people feel sharp. "I don''t want to see the mistake of the last time again... If it happens again, you may not have the face to appear in front of me again." "Yes!" The chief executives of various regions responded one after another. "Break up!" Gu Beichen spoke indifferently and then cut off the video communication. Almost at the same time, he got up and walked out of the office "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing saw Gu Beichen coming out and greeted him. "Madam Shao said she was a little bored and went to the roof." Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned, "is she alone?" Xiao Xiao nodded. "Susan was going to follow, but she wouldn''t let..." Gu Beichen didn''t say anything more and walked to the stairwell... He didn''t worry about what Jane Mo would do, but he couldn''t control his instinctive tension. "Chen Shao..." suddenly, Susan shouted hurriedly. When the sound fell, people ran out of the secretary room. Gu Beichen stopped and looked back at Susan suspiciously. Susan came forward and handed Gu Beichen a folded white paper. "This is from Mrs. Shao." Gu Beichen looked at Susan indifferently. After taking the paper, he turned around and opened it while walking When he saw that there was a two-dimensional code inside, Gu Beichen''s heart "Dong" shook. Conscious control behavior, he quickly took out his mobile phone, opened the software and scanned the QR code "On the road of this rugged life, you are the most beautiful gift of my life!" With a bang, my mind exploded like fireworks. Gu Beichen smiled with surprise on his cold face... He was always calm and ran to the stairwell. "What happened to Chen Shao?" Susan wondered. Xiao Jing said to me, "it''s estimated that my efforts are not in vain. At this moment, I''m from mature and steady to green and impulsive in an instant!" "What do you mean?" Susan didn''t react. Xiao Jing looked at her with disgust, "it means... Madam Shao is back!" Chapter 592 The noon sun is a little dry and hot, which is different from the stuffy and hot feeling of coastal cities like seaside city. Compared with Los Angeles, it is moderately dry and wet But at noon, Jian Mo felt sick against the sun. However, at this moment, she just wanted to stand in the sun... As if, only in this way, can all the haze be exposed and live brighter. There was a rapid sound of footsteps coming from far to near, and Jian Mo didn''t look back... Then he heard the rooftop door pushed open vigorously. The corners of the mouth, facing the sun, gradually had a smile. That smile was very light, but it showed too much joy. There is no movement behind, only the hot eyes that make Jian Mo have nowhere to hide than the sun Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo in this way. Her capable clothes and proud back were obviously thin. However, she could feel that there were no less things that could be carried on her shoulders than him. Step up, step by step... Step by step close to her. At every step, Gu Beichen admitted that he was timid. Why? Hehe, because such a woman is beautiful, he suddenly feels unworthy Yes, it''s not that she doesn''t deserve him, but that he doesn''t deserve her. But... What does it matter? Love is the persistence solidified under madness. From behind, one hand wrapped around Jian Mo''s shoulder, the other around her waist, and slowly pulled her into his arms He once said, told her... When you are tired, lean back, because there will always be him behind you. Each other''s breathing does not need words, just feel each other''s breath, it will become jumping. Hearts beat wildly for each other because of each other. Jian Mo can even feel the vibration of Gu Beichen''s heartache on her back "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen closed his eyes and buried his handsome face in Jian Mo''s neck. He greedily absorbed her breath and kept whispering, "Mo''er... Mo''er, Mo''er..." Jane Mo put her hand gently on his hand and arm around his waist, and closed her eyes to feel his joy and excitement. Thin lips, with hot skin on the neck, linger and forget to return. Every inch makes Gu Beichen and Jian Mo tremble with their hearts. Gu Beichen gasped. He closed his eyes tightly and gradually tightened his arms around Jian mo. Jane Mo was strangled in pain, but she didn''t say a word Gu Beichen didn''t intend to stop the tightening action. He surrounded it bit by bit, as if he wanted to completely press Jian Mo into his body... In this way, they would never separate from each other again. "Do you want to strangle me?" Jane Mo felt that at this moment, she really shouldn''t break the romance of "reunion after a long separation". It''s a pity... Gu Beichen''s is pure revenge, and his men are completely merciless. Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes. The fundus of his eyes was already cunning, and his thin lips caught a proud son''s evil smile "You know how anxious I am. You lied to me!" Gu Beichen was dissatisfied in his voice, but he was not angry at all. Jian Mo grabbed Gu Beichen''s hand and broke free Of course, she also knows that Gu Beichen doesn''t want to be imprisoned, otherwise she can''t open it? "I lied to you and you were angry..." Jane Mo sneered. "Since you wanted to push me away, why are you still sticking it like a dog skin plaster?" Looking at Jane morna''s rich expression, but completely angry, Gu Beichen''s eyes became deep. "Because I feel I''ve lost......" Gu Beichen''s voice was full of deep meaning. Jane Mo frowned, "Gu Beichen, what do you mean?" "Call your husband!" Gu Beichen was immediately dissatisfied. Jane Mo rolled her eyes. She didn''t know why. Suddenly she had a feeling... It''s a good thing that she doesn''t lose her memory. However, Gu Beichen''s tenderness turned black. "What did you lose?" Jian Mo asked angrily, deliberately ignoring Gu Beichen''s call "husband". Gu Beichen was serious and even said very seriously, "although it was a last resort to push you away before, think about it afterwards..." Jane Mo waited, but Gu Beichen stopped and stopped talking. She knew that he was waiting for her to ask, but... She didn''t ask anyone who didn''t have a little fire in her heart. She liked to say it or not. Gu Beichen''s smile spread, but in an instant, it reached the bottom of his eyes He is proud and charming. Mo''er with some small thoughts is really back. "Afterwards, in that stormy night, you strengthened me..." Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo and said calmly, "... You have to be responsible for me, don''t you?" What about the tenderness? The agreed tenderness is like water? The agreed normal plot should be... Lost to know precious? Jian Mo''s fire "rubbed" straight up. In fact, she didn''t really want to ask this, but felt... When he pushed her away, she felt a little uncomfortable and wanted to play a small temper. Sure enough... Men''s thinking is not on the same line as women''s. "Gu Beichen, you..." Jian Mo was so angry that he was almost hurt internally. "You are a bird that overturns right and wrong... Huh!" Later, Gu Beichen stopped Jian Mo''s waist with one hand and pulled her back brain with the other hand to his deep kiss... And swallowed it directly. Lips and tongues, like tornadoes, swept all the beauty and thoughts of Jianmo. But in an instant, she can only sink with his hegemony and cooperate with his rhythm Animals? Whatever! Anyway, she loves such a man who is cold and cruel to outsiders, but she is always domineering and gentle to her, sometimes black and evil, sometimes "naughty", isn''t she? Jane Mo climbed up Gu Beichen''s neck with her arms and stood on tiptoe to prevent him from struggling because of his attachment... Just like everything before, she showed all her enthusiasm. There was a voice from the rooftop door, but the two selfless people who kissed didn''t find it at all. "Susan didn''t see the year-end award..." but she didn''t blink. Xiao Jing glared discontentedly, "can you always talk about my year-end bonus? It''s like you didn''t see... I''ll find you''re all right later." "Don''t worry, you''re here..." Susan looked at Xiao Jing and smiled at the bottom of her eyes. Xiao Jing immediately looked confused and forced, "what do you mean?" "Silly, you?" Susan learned Xiao Jinggang''s disgusted face, "Chen Shao likes to operate on you. It''s not a day or two..." "..." Xiao Jing was stunned and immediately felt that it was reasonable. He looked at the two people who had kissed for a century, and threw down a sentence, "there''s still a fire in the sun, and they''re not afraid of scorching..." then he got up, "Hey, I''d better go back and blow the air conditioner." Susan held back her smile and got up. Together with Xiao Jing, she quietly went down the roof. "Well..." came at the right time. Jian Mo had a bad smile at the bottom of her eyes. She was about to push Gu Beichen away, but she kissed her deepe Chapter 593 Jian Mo''s breathing is getting worse and worse. He can''t support it by breathing. He can only greedily draw it from Gu Beichen''s mouth The smell of rust like blood filled each other''s mouths with heat Jian Mo thinks that if Gu Beichen doesn''t let her go, will she become the first person in history to suffer from heatstroke because of kissing in the sun? Tut Tut, what''s on the headlines... It''s not her intention! However, where is Gu Beichen willing to let her suffer from heatstroke? Just when Jian Mo''s body collapsed and could only be supported by the strength of his arms, he slowly released Jian Mo''s lips The blood is still in the corner of the mouth. The burning pain in the corner of the mouth, when the lips are separated, because the skin sticks together, and then tear it apart... Even worse. "Little wild cat!" Gu Beichen rubbed the corner of his mouth with his hand. Jane Mo stared at him fiercely, "who told you to push me away before? I didn''t want you. It''s all your blessing in your last life." Gu Beichen couldn''t laugh or cry, but his eyes looked at Jian Mo with guilt. Although we say that many things cannot be willful to each other... We can push her away, not face the problems together, but he is always wrong. Even though his starting point is to protect her. Jane Mo gasped. After a while, her breath calmed down. "You did it on purpose." "Yes..." Gu Beichen drew an evil radian at the end of his eyes. "You..." "Do you want to continue?" Jane Mo immediately shut up, stared fiercely at Gu Beichen, pushed him away angrily, and walked downstairs. She''s getting dizzy from the sun I found a place to dress. I''m really crying to finish this "romantic" play! Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, and his smile didn''t stop He also turned around and went down the roof with Jane mo. Susan and the two of them opened the stairs and walked into the office. Jane Mo was trying to figure out how to say hello to the two people. It wouldn''t be too embarrassing. She suddenly held her hand and walked forward Before the reaction came over, the people around him had coldly left a sentence, "Xiao Jing, this year''s year-end bonus has been deducted!" "Ah?" Xiao Jing immediately stared, "why?" Susan was already holding back a smile. She looked at Jane Mo and continued to hold it... Until Gu Beichen didn''t say anything to Xiao Jing and took Jane Mo into the office. "There''s no reason," Susan looked at Xiao Jing sympathetically. "Obviously, Chen Shao was there until you were there." "You are also..." Xiao Jing quit. "How could it?" Susan continued her innocent face. "I was just studying..." she said, holding up the meal card in her hand, "... What do you have for lunch? Besides, I''m not as gossip and curious as you are! Yes, that''s it..." "..." Xiao Jing looked at Susan''s proud appearance and said gnashing his teeth, "you''re... Cruel!" ¡­¡­ By the crescent lake, the umbrella moved gently in the breeze. Shi Shaoqin sat under the umbrella, his long and narrow eyes gently fell on the lake, and his beautiful handsome face showed an incomprehensible indifference. "Qin Shao..." after getting off the bus, Mosen walked over. Shi Shaoqin slowly took back his sight, "awake?" He tilted his head and whispered, but it seemed that he was sure. Mo Sen was stunned and shook his head. "Jian Mo and Gu Beichen went to the emperor and haven''t come out yet... Lunch is also prepared by the staff restaurant." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, "then why are you so anxious?" "No news," said Morson after a slight pause. "No message. I hope to see you in a week." Shi Shaoqin slowly tilted his head to look at morsen and looked at him quietly Morson felt a chill on the soles of his feet, which dissipated the heat around him. "What if I don''t go back?" Shi Shaoqin''s words had no cold trace of temperature. Morson''s face was heavy and his eyes dropped. "Didn''t say!" Shi Shaoqin drew a sneer at Leng Chi at the corner of his mouth, took back his sight, looked at the crescent lake and said, "is he forcing me?" It was a question, but Mosen didn''t dare to answer, and Shi Shaoqin didn''t need him to answer. With a heavy heart, Mosen stood there quietly and never left If you really want to fight for Gu Beichen, Jian Mo and Qin Shao... You always feel that a storm is coming again. ¡­¡­ Xiao Jing was unhappy. He had no year-end bonus. He felt that life was not beautiful. "Madam Shao, the mobile phone for you..." Xiao Jing handed Jian mo the mobile phone with the new card. "Thank you!" "You''re welcome..." Xiao Jing shook his head with a smile, and then looked at Gu Beichen. "Yo, Chen Shao, are there mosquitoes in our office?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at Xiao Jing with warning in his eyes. Xiao Jing thought to himself that he had no year-end bonus to deduct anyway. Why should he find some fun? "What happened to this mouth?" Xiao Jing looked curious. "It doesn''t look like he was bitten by mosquitoes? Tut Tut, his skin is broken..." Gu Beichen didn''t know anything yet. Jian Mo''s face was already red. She looked at the wound at the corner of his mouth and thought of being on the roof at noon, and her face became even more red. Gu Beichen was indifferent, slowly lying back on the seat with deep ink pupils and said slowly, "I heard that boss long is short of people who can handle affairs and are exquisite in all aspects recently." Xiao Jing immediately stared, "I didn''t say anything, and I didn''t see anything..." he said, smearing oil on the soles of his feet and ran away. "You really deducted Xiao Jing''s year-end bonus?" Jane Mo asked curiously. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly. "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. "I always thought you were joking." "It works to joke once, but there is no binding force behind it." Jane Mo frowned. "Isn''t Xiao Jing getting a lot of year-end bonuses?" "Six digits..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and said incredulously, "if I were him, I would quit... You boss, too pit!" Then she got up, "you''re busy, I''ll go to the tea room to read..." as she said, she slightly raised her eyebrows and smiled darkly at the bottom of her eyes. "As for our account, wait until you Python king." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply, but he smiled strangely at the corners of his mouth and didn''t say anything. Jane Mo also knows her weight and wants to talk to Gu Beichen. She is undoubtedly the one who is finally persuaded. However, there are some things that she must make clear today... If the same thing happens, she doesn''t want and doesn''t want to experience it a second time. After going to the tea room, Jian Mo gently swiped her finger across the mobile phone screen... She planned to call Li Xiaoyue first. However, before dialing out the number, the mobile phone rang. As it was a new mobile phone and a new number, Jane Mo couldn''t help frowning at a group of numbers and didn''t understand who called. Jane didn''t speak, she didn''t foam "Why, don''t you want to talk?" Light Yi is permeated with an indifferent voice, which comes from a deep place. Jane Mo immediately widened her eyes, "how do you know my number?" Chapter 594 After all, the mobile phone is new, and the number is not the same as before It can be said that even she doesn''t know her current phone number. How does Shao Shi know? "Is it hard to know?" Light eh''s voice is Shi Shaoqin''s consistent voice line, but there is no temperature, "it seems... You really remember." Jane Mo clenched her hand, "Shao Shi... I don''t know you!" They know each other only because of the villa design. Don''t tell her that Shaoshi''s lover is her... She can guarantee that Shaoshi has never existed in her life. "Why, we''ve been together for a while..." Shi Shaoqin didn''t seem angry, just smiled and said in his usual soft voice, "... Are they all fake?" Jane Mo''s heart contracted inexplicably, as if she had been slashed by a poisoned blade... She only felt that her head was ignorant of the pain. The experience of these days is not her intention, but... It is a stain between her and ah Chen. "What do you want to do?" Jian moqiang felt uncomfortable under self pressure and asked with his teeth clenched. Shi Shaoqin smiled and looked at the crescent lake. "Just make sure you''re really awake." Jane Mo wants to hang up, but she is also very clear... Wayward behavior can''t solve the problem at all. "And then?" "Then?" Shi Shaoqin also lightly eh, and then slowly smiled and said, "then of course, he tried to bring you back to me..." "Shao Shi, you are crazy!" Jane Mo roared, "I am a man with a husband. Even, I only love him... I don''t care if there is anything I don''t know between you and me. I trouble you. Don''t destroy my happiness!" "What should I do?" Shi Shaoqin seemed to be very distressed and said softly. Jane was stunned, "huh?" Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, "my greatest pleasure is to destroy other people''s happiness..." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, and then squeezed out two words from her teeth, "abnormal!" Shi Shaoqin was slightly silent, and then youyou said, "he once said the same thing about me..." Jane Mo didn''t know who he meant by "he" and was not in the mood to explore. She just thought of some dog blood bridges instinctively. What, she is very similar to Shao shiai''s people, what he was stimulated by love... Wait! However, she is innocent, and she and ah Chen are also innocent, okay? "Some people may be destroyed by you, but..." Jian Mo eased the inner atmosphere and said with clenched teeth, "my feelings for ah Chen will not change anyway." After taking a deep breath, Jian Mo continued, "Shao Shi, I''m just an ordinary woman... No matter I''m strong, I just hope to have a lover''s chest to lean on and a pair of hands to hold up a sky for me." "I..." "Don''t tell me, you can!" Jian Mo interrupted Shi Shaoqin, "I can do it myself, can''t I? It''s just that when you meet that person, you want him to support you... The problem here is not who can support you, but who you are willing to let support you!" At last, Jane Mo was a little excited. She felt that it was futile to reason, but the anger accumulated in her heart was beyond her control at the moment. Falling in love with Gu Beichen, how did you solve waves of trouble It''s not easy to solve the problem on ah Chen''s side. There''s a problem on her side again. Can''t we let them have a good, just as thousands of women hope... Snuggle up with their lovers? At the thought of this, Jane Mo''s eyes were a little red. She quickly closed her eyes and raised her head Tears are the performance of the weak. Now she has to be stronger to let ah Chen understand that she can face all problems with him. "Shao Shi, at first... I think you are a congenial friend." Jane Mo''s voice was a little heavy. She opened her eyes and said, "do you have to destroy that beauty?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t answer. Jian Mo waited for about five seconds before saying, "put each other''s memories where you want to put them. Just miss them... Gone!" Words fall, Jane Mo hung up the phone, but people can''t calm their thoughts for a long time. Shi Shaoqin didn''t call again, and Jian Mo didn''t know how much he could understand her thoughts She has passed the age of innocence and won''t think that with a few words, Shao Shi can be moved... But she always hopes for something in her heart. The building of emperor group is very high, 79 floors deep, overlooking everything in Los Angeles Here, everything in the bottom of your eyes seems small and not worth mentioning. Jane Mo''s hand was gently placed on the slightly raised abdomen, and the sadness in her heart immediately poured out. These days of "amnesia" made it impossible for her to think about pregnancy. That''s why Shao Shicai didn''t find it, did he? But... What if you don''t find it? She has taken so many drugs during this time Thinking of this, Jane Mo felt distressed for a while and urgently needed to find someone to relieve her inner hesitation and tension under fear. And this man... Can''t be Gu Beichen! Picked up the phone, Jane Mo called Li Xiaoyue... But it was a arrears shutdown! Jane Mo couldn''t understand it. She looked at the number she dialed and determined it several times. After there was no error, she dialed again. She still owed the fee and stopped the machine. "How possible?" Jane murmured a sentence and typed it again without giving up. It was still so. She wanted to call the law firm, but she couldn''t remember the number at all. Fortunately, the name of the law firm is clear. She checked the phone number of the law firm directly on the Internet "Hello, please find Li Xiaoyue!" Jane Mo said politely. The other party was obviously stunned, and then said, "Li LV..." after a pause, the other party changed his mouth, "Li Xiaoyue is in prison!" "..." Jane Mo broke her mind. When she reacted, she asked affirmatively, "what did you... What did you just say?" "Lawyer Li was put in prison for killing by mistake!" Jian Mo only felt that there was a "bang" in her head. After saying "goodbye" to the other party in a hurry, she ran to Gu Beichen''s office Even, I forgot to knock because I was in a hurry. Gu Beichen was holding a video conference. When he heard the door ring, he frowned slightly... But when he saw that it was Jian Mo, everything became soft again. "Take a ten minute break!" Gu Beichen opened his mouth indifferently and then cut off the video. He looked at Jane Mo, who was still standing at the door staring at him, got up and walked forward, "what''s the matter?" Chapter 595 Jane Mo didn''t speak. She was so urgent that she suddenly didn''t know how to ask Gu Beichen at this moment. Looking at her, Gu Beichen pulled her into the office and motioned that Xiao Jing closed the door of the office after she was all right. Pulling Jian Mo to sit down on the sofa, Gu Beichen asked softly, "do you want to ask Xiao Yue?" Although it was a doubt, Gu Beichen was sure from Jian Mo''s face. "How could..." after Jane Mo said three words heavily, she couldn''t speak again. She can''t face such a thing... Before and after, it''s only about a month. How does it seem that the whole world has changed? Gu Beichen looked at her sad appearance and comforted her hand into the palm. "Something happened unexpectedly. Some things can''t be explained clearly for a while..." After a pause, he looked at Jian Mo deeply, "Shaochen is her defense lawyer. It''s my meaning not to let him out!" Jane Mo slightly dilated her pupils. "What do you mean?" Gu Beichen raised his thin lips and asked, "why not?" Jian Mo stared at Gu Beichen angrily. "You know Xiao Yue is my best friend, and Mo Shaochen is her defense lawyer... It is estimated that even if she is guilty, she will not be guilty." In the last sentence, she muttered. Gu Beichen looked at her charming appearance and felt that... No matter how much experience, as long as she was by his side, everything was worth it. "Xiaoyue was deliberately framed," Gu Beichen explained. "Everything was done perfectly, even if she thought she killed herself." "Xiaoyue must be in pain..." Jane Mo hung her eyes with guilt. When she is in trouble, Xiao Yue is always by her side. However, when Xiaoyue needed her most... She was not there. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo into his arms. "When something happened to her, although you weren''t there... But I was!" Jane morhu''s lips and understood Gu Beichen''s meaning, "I want to see Xiao Yue." "Well, I''ll arrange..." Gu Beichen replied, "the meeting is over. I''ll go with you." "I''ll just go myself." Jane Mo got up, looked at Gu Beichen and said, "you have been with me at the beach for so long, you must have a lot of work." Gu Beichen smiled, "don''t worry, I won''t let you become a poor man." "..." Jane Mo was stunned and suddenly turned around, Gu Beichen said. After all... She is now the emperor''s largest shareholder! "I''ll wait for you in the lounge..." Jian Mo is not a hypocritical person. Just now she was shocked to hear that Li Xiaoyue was in prison. Gu Beichen nodded. After Jian Mo went out, he began to continue the video conference. Indeed, people have pressed some things on the beach. However, the emperor has a history and is a multinational group at the top of the pyramid... Even if Gu Beichen is not here, the operation of various departments here will not be interrupted. Jian Mo sat in the lounge and looked through the architectural design books Xiao Jing found, so she was in no mood. She is always uneasy. According to the memory fragments, Shao Shi and ah Chen should know each other... Even, they should be very familiar. Is there a grudge between them or something? Is she used by Shao Shi to deal with ah Chen? Questions are clearly emerging, but they can''t be answered. I don''t know why, whether it''s feeling or subconsciousness... She suddenly had a feeling that Shaoshi had something to do with ah Chen''s kidnapping. That memory was not mentioned in Gu''s family. It must have hurt ah Chen deeply. If so, she went directly to ask ah Chen, that is, she tore his wound with her own hands... How can she bear it? Thinking, Jane heaved a sigh. She was suddenly powerless... Such powerlessness came from ignorance! He seems to be able to see through what she thinks or wants to do at a glance and understand what you think And what about her? Jane Mo lowered her eyes, looked at the ring on her ring finger, gently rubbed it, opened her palm... The tiny flower English letters came into view. Heart to heart, she can always feel his pain and his love. ¡­¡­ Wearing a light lake blue T-shirt and a pair of white casual pants, Su Junli strolled on the edge of the sea taro flower field with his hands copied. The West slanting sunlight hit his flaxen short hair. Under his gentle temperament, there was always a faint sadness Suddenly, he stopped slowly. The line of sight fell in front, and a group of young college students were setting up an easel. Su Jun''s sight became deeper and deeper. Looking at one of the girls with a horsetail, he gradually lost his mind Until someone called him, he didn''t return to God and looked back at the voice "Mom?" Su Junli looked at Lu Hanyu, restrained his thoughts and walked forward, "Why are you here?" "I went shopping with my wife nearby and came in by the way." In a word, sister Hua conveyed the message. Lu Hanyu looked at his son painfully, "sister Hua, go and buy it. I''ll talk to Jun Li for a while." "Good!" Sister Hua looked at Su Jun, then turned and left. Su Junli stepped forward to hold Lu Hanyu and sat down on a bench in the shade. "Mom, are you looking for me?" "Just take a chance." Lu Hanyu sighed, "every time you are sad or don''t understand things, you love to come here..." "I''m fine." Su Junli said something heartless. "It''s all right?" Lu Hanyu bluntly exposed him. Su Jun twitched. In front of his mother, he didn''t hide deeply, "Mom, I''m not a saint." Hearing his son say this, Lu Hanyu''s nose became sour. "I''ve been in contact with Jane Morse''s child once. I don''t believe in gossip... But I''m afraid she and Gu Beichen can''t accommodate anyone anymore." "I know." Su Junli looked ahead. The wind blew and the flowers and leaves floated like waves. "In fact, I knew very well during the years I spent with her in England... But I couldn''t control my heart." Lu Hanyu also looked ahead, "who can control your heart? When love comes, you always hope to get a pair of feelings that will last until death... That''s why you like sea taro flowers." "In fact, when I see Mo Mo happy, I''m also happy." When Su Junli said this, the corners of his mouth waved a smile, which was from his heart. "I think at least I can do something for her." Like last night, he could make her subconsciously shout his name with the sound of the piano... It shows that even if it is not the first, there is his position in Mo Mo''s heart. Even if... Has nothing to do with love. As a mother, Lu Hanyu thinks more and naturally worries more. She looked at Su Junli and asked slowly, "Junli, will you hate because of love?" Chapter 596 Su Jun Li frowned lightly and looked sideways at Lu Han, "Mom, how can it be?" Although he is not a saint, what he says is for love. But he still has basic reason. He admits that he has been unable to put down foam. Even... Up to now, there is no way. But he will never do anything to hurt Mo mo. he just wants her to be happy... Just stand in the distance silently and watch her happy. Maybe one day, someone can occupy his heart and replace foam. But in any case, it is impossible to take the injury of foam as the premise "That''s good!" Lu Hanyu sighed softly, as if he were relieved. She looked ahead and paused for a while before slowly saying, "I''m just worried... Your character is too similar to that of my youth, and even the way you love..." "Mom, stop talking." Su Junli interrupted Lu Hanyu''s words. Su Junli looked at Lu Hanyu. When she was young, her mother hated her because of love, so now she is like this... Her mother is worried that he has gone her old way, he knows. Lu Hanyu really didn''t go on. She had suffered and didn''t want Junli to eat it again Everyone has been young, frivolous, desperate for something or someone, and then hurt others. At the same time, he is black and blue. Jane Mo is a good girl. She''s experienced so much. She''s right about people. As for the gossip outside, different people have different opinions. "Jun Li," Lu Hanyu covered Su Jun Li''s hand with his mother''s love for his son, "mom is from here, so I won''t force you." "Mom..." Su Junli looked at Lu Hanyu and felt guilty at the bottom of his eyes. Lu Hanyu shook his head with a smile. "Mom didn''t think about anything else, and she knew... There was no specific result between Jane Mo and Chen Shao. Your obsession is false." She sighed, "Mom just hopes that when she is sunny, you don''t always stand in the shadow, let your heart feel her sunshine and find your own world." Su Jun left the corner of his mouth, raised his head and nodded, "it may not be easy, but I will try..." ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin stood by the fence of the terrace on the second floor with his pocket in one hand. There were several potted plants on it. It seemed a little lonely in the sunset. The mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. Shi Shaoqin took it out indifferently. He didn''t see who called, but just picked it up and put it in his ear. "Qin Shao, we have found out the possibility." Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed gently, and his voice didn''t overflow any temperature. The beautiful lips, "say!" "The only possibility is that progesterone hormone can accommodate and dilute the drug... That is, if we can determine whether the drug user is pregnant, we can confirm this." Shi Shaoqin suddenly opened his eyes, and the deep pupil burst out a shocking light. Clearly, it is a time when the sunset is infinitely good. The cold smell overflowing from his body makes the surroundings dark and strange. The other party didn''t hang up and didn''t dare to make a sound, just waiting quietly I don''t know how long later, when the caller''s breath began to feel tense and invisible force, Shi Shaoqin said coldly: "find a pregnant woman to test." Without waiting for an answer, he hung up the phone. The good-looking lip corner made a sneer. It was so light that people could hardly see it clearly. The extremely beautiful handsome face is overflowing with complex emotions... He can''t find such emotions himself. Even the people around him can''t guess them. Drop your eyes and raise your hand Shi Shaoqin had recovered his usual indifference... Such complex emotions quickly made him unable to recognize them. Dial the number and put it in your ear In a moment, the other party picked it up. "What are you doing?" Shi Shaoqin asked about the temperature. Shi Jue Chi frowned and then said faintly, "I''m thinking you''ll come back?" Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes and smiled coldly at the corners of his mouth. "Juechi, you should understand... Even if I go back, it''s easy to remotely control things here." "People live in this world, no matter how domineering, cold or ruthless you are," Shi juechi''s voice didn''t fluctuate too much. "There are always one or two people or one or two things that can''t be let go, can''t they?" Shi Shaoqin immediately sank his face, but soon recovered his calm, "it''s with you... Jane Mo''s pregnancy, isn''t it?" Shi Jue Chi instantly changed his face, "how do you know?" However, when the urgent question was over, Shi juechi knew that if he cared, he fell into the trap of Shi Shaoqin. "Sure enough..." Shi Shaoqin sneered. Now go to see if Jian Mo is pregnant, which will definitely disturb Gu Beichen... If you want to confirm this, it is obviously the fastest here in Juxi. "Shaoqin, what do you want to do?" Shi juechi was worried. Because he knows, he doesn''t expect... He knows too well what Shaoqin will do next. There is no need for blood blade to control Jian Mo and completely collapse Gu Beichen! "You don''t know what I''m going to do?" Shi Shaoqin did not retort, "a week, did he?" He asked back, and without waiting for Shi Juxi to answer, he said, "it seems that I can go back in the time you ask..." "Shaoqin..." Shi juechi became more and more worried. However, just after he shouted his name, there was a beep in his mobile phone. Shi juechi didn''t have time to think about it, so he turned and ran to the castle "Jueshao..." Kani originally came out to find Shi juechi. When he saw him running back to the castle, he hurried to catch up with him, "jueshao, qinshao sent someone over there." Over there! Which way? Shi juechi didn''t ask. He also knew that Kani was worth the secret manor where they lived with Jane Mo for several days The traditional Chinese medicine in that village was shown to Jane Mo and knew about her pregnancy. Shi juechi didn''t have time to think about it, so he turned and planned to leave. However, before taking a few steps, he stopped and turned and said, "let Siyue pay attention to the delivery of things from the Mo palace... I want the exact time." "Jueshao means..." Carney stepped forward two steps and lowered his voice. "Qin Shao wants to take off Jianmo''s child?" Shi juechi was silent and smiled sadly, "if it''s so simple, it''s ok..." Carney also felt that he was naive and had little means. He always liked to leave a shadow on people''s life... How could he just be so? "Never less..." Carney is in a heavy mood. He and the sample are the confidants around never less. They have been together for many years. He can understand that now the most sad and tangled thing is never less. And there''s another thing he''s worried about Shi juechi understood Kani''s meaning, and the corner of his mouth was even more sad. "Is there a better way now?" "Never less..." carneton became frightened, his words came out, and he wanted to stop talking. Shi juechi glanced at Carney and said nothing more. He just turned around and went back to the castle. In fact, what did he do... He just didn''t want Shaoqin to suffer in the end. However... How can people escape from happiness, anger and sorrow when they live in the world? Chapter 597 Five kilometers to the south of the western suburb of Los Angeles, there are open spaces everywhere, except for a large courtyard surrounded by a five meter high wall, which becomes particularly conspicuous. Xiao Jing parked his car in the peripheral safe parking area, opened the door of the prison and looked at Gu Beichen from the rearview mirror. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo get out of the car. They don''t know if it''s because of the low and empty place. The wind is a little strong, but it''s more comfortable than in the city. However, when people stand in this place, no matter how comfortable and pleasant, they will become heavy. "Let''s go..." Gu Beichen came forward and held Jian Mo''s hand. The deep eagle eyes were full of a sense of security for Jian mo. Jane Mo looked at him and nodded. The two went to the prison. The guard was informed in advance. When they saw them, they called inside The tight door soon opened and the warden hurried out. "Chen Shao..." the warden nodded and bowed, with a flattering smile on his face, looked at Jian Mo and nodded, "I''m already in the reception room... Please." Gu Beichen took Jian Mo and went into the reception room. When Jian Mo saw Li Xiaoyue in prison clothes, her nose was sour and almost burst into tears. "I''ll wait for you outside, huh?" Gu Beichen held Jian Mo''s hand slightly and gave her support. Jane nodded and went in... And sat down opposite Li Xiaoyue. "Xiao Yue..." "Girl, seeing you alive is probably the happiest thing for me recently." Li Xiaoyue interrupted Jian Mo''s words with a smile. It doesn''t matter on her face. Jane Mo looked at her quietly, and her heart was desolate. Xiaoyue is a very proud person. Such an experience... The more she behaves, the more she bears in her heart. Although there is mo Shaochen''s reason for studying law, if she doesn''t really like it, she may change her major after the first year. No matter whether the murder was framed or not, she has the stain of imprisonment. Even if she goes out, she can''t take the card test again... This is the biggest regret for her, isn''t it? Jane Mo held Li Xiaoyue''s hand and looked down slightly: "you told me that there is no such thing as a can''t get through..." she raised her eyes, "our lives have each other, don''t we?" After so much experience, each other has become mature and can no longer be as heartless as before... After all, life always needs to look forward. "And you?" Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo, "those rumors, even the confusion of relations... And the past!" Jian Mo looked at Li Xiaoyue and said seriously, "I believe Gu Beichen, so... I will face it hand in hand with him." Her eyes became more and more firm. "Even if the final truth will make me depressed, at least... There is no regret in life." Li Xiaoyue''s eyes became red immediately. She knew that the firmer Jane Mo told her at the moment, the... Stronger she would be. She knows, and so does Jane mo. Li Xiaoyue held Jian Mo''s hand and said, "girl, it''s nice to have you here." She hung her eyes and said, tears have slipped down her eyes From the beginning of her imprisonment, she seemed to have lost her soul. At this moment, she knew... She was not the one who worked hard. You don''t need many girlfriends. It''s enough to have one to fight with you and understand you. You''re crazy, she''s with you! If you feel pain, she will accompany you You laugh, and I''m by your side! Leaving prison, the lights are on. On the way back, Jian Mo was in a low mood... Gu Beichen just kept holding her hand and gave her quiet company. "Ah Chen..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo lightly. "When will Xiaoyue come out?" Jane Mo asked anxiously. Gu Beichen smiled and stroked the little hand in the palm of his hand, "when she figured it out, Shaochen will naturally appeal..." "Why?" Jane frowned. Gu Beichen explained: "come out and face the prosperity, she will easily get into the corner... Only when she is in the dark world, whether she is degenerate or strong is her original intention." Hearing him say this, Jane Mo immediately moved her nose... She didn''t say thanks or even anything, because... They don''t need to say too much. Night, dignified but addictive. For two people who miss each other, only the most primitive blending can express their longing and love for each other. When a room is full of beautiful spring light, the temporary troubles seem to be forgotten by two people. But Gu Beichen and Jian Mo know very well that if they don''t ask each other, they don''t mean they don''t want to... And many things are still around them. If they don''t solve them, they will always be stuck in the throat! Jian Mo gradually fell asleep in Gu Beichen''s arms Although she woke up, she was tired because of her pregnancy. She didn''t say the child, and she knew that Gu Beichen must know At night, the lights gradually went out in all houses, and the lights became deep. The villa in the middle of the mountain is even more quiet and pleasant. There are no insects "Ah --" Suddenly, a scream broke the silence. Just as Gu Beichen opened his eyes in an instant, Jian Mo had sat up and gasped. Gu Beichen turned on the bedside lamp, sat up and asked with a slightly dignified face, "what''s the matter? Have you had a nightmare?" Jane Mo didn''t answer, but gasped, and her chest rose and fell because of shortness of breath "Mo''er?" Gu Beichen frowned, a little flustered. Jian Mo swallowed hard and looked at Gu Beichen... Her forehead was full of fine cold sweat. "I..." Jane Mo spit out a word, but she didn''t know what to say. Gu Beichen didn''t urge her, but tried to calm her mood and give her soothing sight. "I''ll pour you a glass of water..." Gu Beichen said and wanted to get out of bed. However, when a person moves, he is grabbed by his small hand. "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo said in a frightened voice with a short breath. "I dreamed that Shaoshi was going to take my child!" Subconsciously, she covered her lower abdomen. In that way, it seemed that she was not dreaming, but really It''s common for pregnant women to be nervous. However, Jane Mo''s tension comes from her subconscious, and she has no sense of security Gu Beichen felt guilty and gently took Jian Mo into his arms. After a kiss on the top of her hair, he said softly, "Mo''er, I''m here... Don''t put so much pressure on yourself, okay?" Jane Mo closed her eyes and knew she was too nervous "Ah Chen, I want a milk bag!" "I''ll arrange it tomorrow..." "Yes!" Jane Mo nodded her head gently in Gu Beichen''s arms. In fact, she knows what she''s nervous about The child in the stomach is not responsible for the child even if she stays because of drugs... Just, she wants to wait for some time and see after four-dimensional. Maybe a miracle will happen? The night is reassuring because it is quiet. It''s depressing because you''re not in the light Shi Shaoqin picked up the phone that showed an incoming call and answered, "are you ready?" "Qin Shao... It''s ready. The medicine will be delivered to Los Angeles tomorrow afternoon!" Chapter 598 After having a nightmare, Jane Mo couldn''t sleep. Gu Beichen didn''t fall asleep either. He just held Jian Mo with one arm as a pillow... The other big palm was gently placed on her lower abdomen. Warm with a slightly coarse feeling, heat is transferred from the skin, and Jane Mo''s heart is gradually quiet, but she is not sleepy Jian Mo looked up slightly. In the dark, she looked at Gu Beichen''s cold and resolute chin and smiled at the corner of her lips, "ah Chen..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen is light. Jane Mo drooped her eyes. "Am I too nervous?" "How?" Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo a little, put his chin on her head and said softly, "Yunze said that pregnant women love to think." Jane Mo knows that she has the element of wishful thinking, but the uneasiness... Is also true. The big palm gently stroked Jian Mo''s lower abdomen around the circle, and Gu Beichen said, "I know you''re worried about protection until the end, it''s all empty..." Jane Mo bit her teeth and tried to bear the sadness overflowing from her heart. "Mo''er," Gu Beichen gently called, "we expect the little guy to come, but we can''t force some things." "I understand..." Jane knows the truth. However, understanding is one thing and doing is another Gu Beichen didn''t say anything. They both knew that many things could not be forced, but it was impossible not to think about them. Jane Mo''s lips moved back and forth. When she got to her mouth, she still swallowed it. She wanted to ask Shao Shi, but if it was really related to the original kidnapping, she didn''t know how to ask, so as to minimize Gu Beichen''s injury. Finally, just hold back Some things are not urgent for a while. "I want to see my father and mother tomorrow." Jane Mo''s eyelashes trembled slightly, "and grandma." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, "I''ll let Xiao Jing send you there." Jian Mo didn''t refuse. Shao Shi was still in Los Angeles. She went alone because she was not responsible for herself, ah Chen... And her children. When the East shone brightly, Jian Mo gradually fell asleep. Gu Beichen waited until she was asleep, then gently pulled out her arm. After Jane Mo didn''t move, she got out of bed. He didn''t wash in the bathroom of the master bedroom. Instead, he went to the side of the second bedroom. After cleaning up, Xiao Jing had come. "Chen Shao." "Have breakfast..." "OK." Xiao Jing answered and sat down at the table. Aunt Luo took out the dishes and chopsticks again and looked upstairs. "Hasn''t Mrs. Shao got up yet?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, "don''t call her. Get up and eat again." Xiao Jing took the bread and smeared it with jam. "I certainly didn''t sleep well last night. I went to see Miss Li. Mrs. Li''s temperament... Gave rise to a lot of problems?" "How''s Shi Shaoqin?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer the question. Xiao Jing shrugged, "strange!" "Huh?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Xiao Jing stuffed a mouthful of bread in his mouth and said in a vague voice, "it''s not surprising that he hasn''t left the crescent lake?" Gu Beichen took a sip of milk and glanced at the headlines of the newspaper. The headline on the front page is that we speculate whether the return of Jian Mo can cause agitation among emperor shareholders and shareholders, and then affect emperor''s share price. "It''s not like him to be so quiet." Gu Beichen looked back and ate breakfast. Xiao Jing stopped. "I''m really worried. Why can''t I find his fatal weakness?" If you want to contain a person, you must know his weakness... But no one knows what Shi Shaoqin''s weakness is. The outside world is still the same. The return of Jian Mo, no matter how conjectured by the outside world, seems to be unable to affect Gu Beichen. Xiangyuli, because Jian Mo was once a man of the moment here, naturally, there were many discussions... Gradually, it was divided into two factions. Seeing Gu Beichen''s attitude, he scolded Jian Mo with jealousy. There are also unconditional support for Jian Mo, saying that Gu Beichen will be so kind to her because those rumors are empty But anyway, these are not the problems that Jane Mo needs to consider for the time being. After Jane got up, she ate. Accompanied by Xiao Jing, she went to the cemetery to see her parents and grandma Gu The mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. Xiao Jing took it out. Seeing that it was Gu Beichen''s, he picked it up, "Chen Shao." "Wait, take Mo''er directly back to the company." Gu Beichen ordered. Xiao Jing answered. When Jian Mo was finished, Jing took her back to the Emperor Group Along the way, he looked relaxed, but Xiao Jing had been paying attention to the situation around him. But all the way into the emperor, everything was calm as if he was too paranoid. "Xiao Jing, is there... Someone following us?" Jian Mo and Xiao Jing asked after entering the elevator. Xiao Jing shook his head. "Seriously, it''s just that there''s No... I''m upset." If the enemy does not move, it is the most difficult. Only when the other party moves can they wait for the opportunity to subdue. Jane Mo drooped her eyes and slowly clenched her hand because she was nervous She took a deep breath and suddenly looked up at Xiao Jing. "Xiao Jing, is Shaoshi related to ah Chen''s original kidnapping?" Xiao Jingwei frowned invisibly, and the corners of his lips moved back and forth. Just as he wanted to speak, there was a "Ding" sound from the elevator, which had already arrived. "Isn''t it?" Jane Mo asked nervously. The elevator door opened with a crash. Xiao Jing said calmly, "madam, I don''t know..." "How possible?" Jane doesn''t believe it. "Why not?" Xiao Jing raised his eyebrows. "I followed Chen Shao when he was ready to become the Emperor..." without giving Jian mo the chance to ask again, he blocked the elevator door that had to be closed, "madam, I have to deal with something." Jane Mo''s black pupil looked at Xiao Jing quietly and wanted to see something from his face Unfortunately, she can''t see anything. Xiao Jing didn''t want to say that he was trained by the Dragon owl. Even if he followed Gu Beichen for so many years, he had already become an adult. Jane Mozhe the lower lip corner and can only go out Xiao Jing looked at her back, sighed, let go, pressed the floors of other departments, and sent a text message to Gu Beichen: Madam Shao asked Shi Shaoqin if it was related to your kidnapping! Gu Beichen looked at the text message, slightly invisible twisted the center of his eyebrows, and didn''t reply. The slender finger pressed out the mobile phone. Then Gu Beichen got up and walked outside the office Jane Mo just wanted to knock on the door, and the door was opened from inside. "Ah Chen..." Gu Beichen looked at her and stroked her hair. In a low voice, he said, "first take you to Yunze to check, and then we''ll see Xiao Jie, huh?" Jane nodded. "OK." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo painfully, but it''s not time to talk about some things now Now Shi Shaoqin has not solved it. If she tells Mo''er everything, the next face will only make her lose her mind. Chapter 599 Gu Beichen explained to Susan that after the afternoon meeting was moved to tomorrow, he drove his car and took Jian Mo to Huakang hospital. Li Yunze had received a call before and arranged for a gynecologist to examine Jian mo. He and Gu Beichen are waiting outside the inspection room. Time seems to solidify in waiting "How do you feel that Jane is awake and you have more on your mind?" Li Yunze''s evil spirit picked his eyes and tail, "what''s going to happen can''t be solved by worrying." "Mo''er and Xiao Jing inquired about my kidnapping..." Gu Beichen said faintly. Now speaking of this matter, he didn''t seem to avoid it as much as he did at the beginning. Li Yunze was not surprised. "She asked me before." Gu Beichen frowned and looked at Li Yunze. "Don''t look at me with such eyes..." Li Yunze played with the stethoscope in his hand. "In addition, you should be mentally prepared... Jane Mo is now the worst and most sensitive time in psychological and physical endurance. If you show a little uneasiness, she will be more sensitive." "I understand..." Gu Beichen said coldly, and his eyes fell on the examination room. "Mo''er woke up. Shi Shaoqin will find the reason soon. It is estimated that he can''t hide the pregnancy." "According to his character, he will start immediately..." Li Yunze answered. Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was covered with a layer of haze. In the depths of the ink pupil, there was a dark, "Yunze, I think..." "Don''t think about it!" Li Yunze immediately interrupted Gu Beichen, "even if you want to, it depends on whether Jian Mo is willing to... Exchange your safety for her. How can you face a strong and arrogant person like her?" Gu Beichen''s sideburns moved slightly and didn''t speak. Silence seems to be the only thing we can face at the moment. When the door of the examination room was opened and the sound of footsteps broke the silence, everyone''s heart was heavy. "The fetus is normal and looks better..." the gynecologist handed the B-ultrasound to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen looked at it with drooping eyes. That little bit can vaguely see the form His fingers gently crossed the picture, and Gu Beichen felt an inexplicable happiness... As if he could feel this little guy. Xiao Jie has lost more than four years of his life, which he doesn''t want to lose again. But, this little guy, can you give him a chance... To take care of him like this all the time? Gu Beichen knew very well that the greater the hope now, the greater the final disappointment But what can I do? This is the child of him and Mo''er. He doesn''t want to lose it. Jian Mo came out and saw Gu Beichen''s soft side. His hand was on his lower abdomen, contracted slightly, and the corners of his mouth smiled. "The doctor said it was good for the time being..." Gu Beichen raised his eyes, and the eagle''s eyes looked at Jian mo. gradually, the corners of his mouth smiled "You want to show your love and go home..." Li Yunze interrupted the two people without eyesight. "Also consider the existence of people like me, okay?" Gu Beichen looked at him coldly, "you killed yourself." Then he nodded with the gynecologist, came forward and pulled Jane Mo and said, "let''s go..." "No conscience!" Li Yunze''s face became bad because of Gu Beichen''s words. He looked at his back and was suddenly blocked by a fast stone in his heart. The gynecologist looked at him and smiled, "Li Shao, there''s a doctor''s academic meeting on the weekend. Will you go?" "No!" Li Yunze gritted his teeth and wanted to leave. The gynecologist smiled, "doctor he will go too. Are you really not going?" Li Yunze''s steps stopped slightly, then he lifted them up and left with big steps In this world, the most desirable thing is love, and the most tormenting thing is love! ¡­¡­ The gears of the plane rubbed against the ground, making a harsh sound and roar, and landed smoothly with the behemoth. Morson looked at the plane indifferently. After the plane gradually taxied to the designated drop off place, there was a dirty darkness in the bottom of his eyes Pick up your cell phone and dial out the number: "Qin Shao, it''s here." "Yes!" Shi Shaoqin sat under his umbrella, put down his coffee cup and answered faintly. "Take it back first or directly..." asked Mosen. Shi Shaoqin was silent, then gently opened his lip and said, "bring it back first." After a pause, he said again, "Chen''s people must also be near the airport. Be careful." "Yes!" Morson answered. Shi Shaoqin hung up the phone, and a smile gradually came to his lips... That smile was too cold and always stiff in the corners of his mouth. Picked up the mobile phone again, Shi Shaoqin looked at the new group of numbers for a while, and then dialed out When Jane Mo''s cell phone rang, she and Gu Beichen had just arrived at Spencer. In order to eliminate unnecessary trouble, she waited in the independent restaurant, and Gu Beichen went to pick up Jian Jie. When she saw the call, her hair stood up and her breathing became rapid. She didn''t want to answer, but she did. "What do you want?" Jane Mo held her breath and asked, gritting her teeth. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes fell in front, "come and have dinner with me?" If it''s gentle, it''s as warm as the spring breeze... When he was on the beach, he was used to the tone of Jian mo. Jian Mo wanted Shao Shi to hit him in the face with his mobile phone, "impossible!" "For me..." Shi Shaoqin smiled. "Nothing is impossible in this world." "Shao Shi, what do you want?" Jane Mo gnashed her teeth. "Don''t tell me you have a crush on me?" She snorted coldly, "you just want to treat ah Chen, don''t you?" "What?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, "Chen told you about me and his past..." Sure enough Jane moxin "clattered" and bit her roots tighter. "What did he say to you?" Shi Shaoqin seemed to be interested. "I mean... I tortured him in a very abnormal way?" He asked, "is that tormenting his will? Or his heart? Or..." Jian Mo was depressed by Shi Shaoqin''s lightness of a question, and his heart was mentioned to his throat Just when he deliberately paused, she held the phone in her hand and pinched it ''rattling''. "Or..." Shi Shaoqin asked with a smile, "what I tortured was actually his body?" Ambiguous words are full of reverie. As a woman in the new era, Jian Mo''s tone to him can''t be crooked without thinking about it. "You pervert!" Jane Mo said, "do you think I''ll believe you?" She sneered, "since you purposefully contacted me, I won''t believe you..." "Oh, are you kidding me?" Shi Shaoqin seemed to suddenly realize that the smile at the corners of his mouth spread and opened his mouth, "Mo''er," he shouted coyly, "you must want to know... Chen''s past, or that period of kidnapped past, is it related to me?" Chapter 600 Jane Mo''s heart suddenly vibrated, and she wanted to ask back However, just when the voice was about to overflow the lips, she suddenly stopped! After being silent for half a minute, Jane Mo smiled, "I said I don''t want to know... I''m afraid you don''t believe it with your arrogant nature?" Shi Shaoqin frowned lightly, as if he didn''t expect Jian Mo to say so. "But I really don''t want to know!" Jane Mo has a cold hiss at the bottom of her eyes. "It''s all about you or nothing... That''s ah Chen''s past. I can''t go back and participate?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but just sneered at the corners of his mouth... That kind of smile was full of evil under the complexity. "People have a desire for knowledge, but it also depends on time, people and their thirst for knowledge..." Jian Mo continued in a clear way. "Shao Shi, no one can participate between me and ah Chen... Only we can participate!" "Really?" The cold voice came with awe inspiring arrogance. Jane Mo sneered, "isn''t it... Didn''t you find out that you controlled my time?" A light sigh made Shi Shaoqin''s eyes narrow slowly... Until it became a gap, he suddenly opened it and his eyes were cold. "You''re such a man. You shouldn''t pay attention to these meaningless things..." Jian Mo said sadly. "It''s Shaoshi who appeared in front of me at the beginning of the day, isn''t it good?" "Are you making chicken soup with me?" Shi Shaoqin''s indifferent voice came slowly, with a sneer under the question, "Mo''er, you''re really naive to let me......" he paused deliberately, and then said, "... I can''t help but want to crush you!" Jane Mo''s heart was startled. Just when she wanted to speak, the hang up sound of "Dudu Dudu" came over "Pervert!" Jane Mo gnashed her teeth and scolded and pressed out her mobile phone. From Shao Shi''s words, she has basically confirmed that Gu Beichen''s kidnapping must have something to do with him But because of this, Jane Mo was suddenly afraid and resisted. Afraid to know, but more resistant to know what was kidnapped. Such a man who approached her for unknown purposes, coupled with Gu Beichen who was unwilling to mention the past... I think the original thing was not just kidnapping. "Mommy -" Suddenly, a happy voice came with the door being opened, interrupting Jane Mo''s thoughts. Seeing Jian Jie, Jian Mo''s eyes turned red in an instant. That posture was like crying for three seconds! Jian Jie had already run to Jian Mo and looked at the way she was going to cry. Immediately, her face was full of disgust. "You''re the ugliest to cry, don''t you know?" He was dissatisfied with the small mouth, "see me... Not so painful?" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she suddenly stared, and the sadness just seemed to be covered by anger. "Do you feel bad if you don''t dislike me all day?" Jian Mo said angrily, gripping Jian Jie''s small face. Jian Jie continued to cool his face and patted off Jian Mo''s ghost claws. "Don''t have anything. Pinch my face..." "I''ll pinch it. How can you drop me?" "Childish!" "Stinky milk bag, are you..." Looking at the angry and disdainful appearance of the mother and son, Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a faint smile, but it was a soft smile from his heart. It seems that looking at their relationship at the moment, we can see what their mother and son looked like when they were in London. Jian Mo and Jian Jie are still playing. Gu Beichen interrupts from time to time. The father and son cooperate and unite. Jian Mo loses the battle after a few rounds. "This time we must have a daughter and be on the same line with me!" Jane Mo murmured to herself. She didn''t find what she had ignored at all. She said as if she had announced something important. Once she swept away the depression just now, she was bewildered by Jane Jie. In Spencer''s small canteen, the laughter of Jane Mo and Jane Jie came from time to time, occasionally mixed with the "quarrel" of confrontation with each other. Two people from diet to life, and even finally to family status, as if they were wrong, one refused to accept the other. "Daddy, you say!" Jane Jie has no words to Jane Mo''s IQ, "am I right or Mommy right?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and saw her staring at herself. There were threats in her eyes, and the smile deepened in the corners of her mouth. Then she spoke nonsense slowly and seriously, "your mommy is right." Jianjie immediately twitched at the corners of his mouth, "Daddy, I really love you." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "huh?" "Mommy''s IQ is a hard injury..." Jian Jie shook his head and sighed. His small hand was still covered on Gu Beichen''s big hand. "In order to make her feel that you have a horizontal line with him, it''s not easy." Jian Mo was so angry that he couldn''t knock Jian Jie''s head with chopsticks. Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually deepened and said calmly, "you scolded me while talking about your mommy?" Jane Jie''s little face was completely innocent, "different people have different opinions!" "..." Gu Beichen twitched at the corners of his mouth, looked at the angry Jian Mo, and then looked at Jian Jie, who was dissatisfied with helping Jian mo. his heart was full of joy. Such a time, when can we get on track? Gu Beichen knows very well that if Shi Shaoqin doesn''t solve it, there will be a time bomb around you at any time Good times are always in a hurry. Jian Mo and Jian Jie had a quarrel all night. Of course, Jian Mo, who had always been "disliked" by his son, didn''t get the upper hand at all in the end. "Mommy..." at the time of parting, Jane Jie opened her mouth, and her small hand held Jane Mo''s hand. Jane Mo''s heart suddenly became heavy. She squatted down slowly and looked at Jane Jie, "what''s the matter?" Retreat from the joy of eating, but in an instant, the surrounding air seemed to condense. Jane Jie''s small mouth moved back and forth several times before she asked stiffly, "Mommy, you won''t leave again... Right?" A simple sentence contains too many meanings. But the little guy didn''t say anything! Jane Mo''s heart seemed to be pierced by a needle. She took Jane Jie into her arms and held her. "Believe it at any time... Mommy never wanted to leave." Jian Jie put his little arm around Jian Mo''s neck, "I know..." he lowered his eyes, "so Mommy should work harder to build herself and don''t let herself leave, okay?" Jane Mo''s nose was sour. She nodded and made a noise in her nose. Some of them left school in a gloomy mood. After returning to the villa, Jian Mo wanted to say to Gu Beichen several times, will you take Jian Jie back? But in the end, I held back. According to Shao Shi''s abnormal degree, I''m afraid he didn''t know the existence of milk bags and didn''t think much, so he didn''t check in this direction If she put the milk bag in danger because of herself, she won''t forgive herself. Chapter 601 Gu Beichen took a bath and came out. Seeing Jane Mo on the terrace, he walked over and hugged her from behind. "Don''t think about it... I have everything, huh?" "Chen, the milk bag is too sensible. I love it." Jane Mo drooped her eyes. "When he was in London, he didn''t need my care. Since he was more than two years old, he basically didn''t need me to put a lot of energy on him..." "Well, that''s like me!" Gu Beichen said proudly. Jane Mo glanced at her eyes, "shameless!" Gu Beichen smiled, turned Jian Mo over in his arms, took advantage of the situation, held the fence in front of him, looked at her with deep eyes and said, "my son is like me. What''s shameless, huh?" The low voice, with the charm of magnetism, makes people''s heart vibrate like a subwoofer. Jane Mo knows that Gu Beichen doesn''t want her to think about those things that bother her. She doesn''t want to be sad all day... Shaoshi already exists. Even if she is sad, it''s impossible that this person will suddenly disappear. The white arm lazily put on Gu Beichen''s neck, and Jane Mo''s eyes were like silk, "husband, my son was born to me. How can he be like me?" "The gene I gave..." Gu Beichen leaned forward and sniffed Jian Mo''s breath. Gradually, his breath began to become greedy. Jane Mo is also mentally itchy to be provoked by his actions. After so much experience, they have long been open to each other''s body shape and don''t need any words. "You said... Is it a boy or a girl in my stomach?" Asked Jane Mo with an unsteady breath. Gu Beichen''s thin lips crossed the skin beside Jian Mo''s earrings, "as long as it''s yours, I like it..." The world''s favorite person, in the intoxicated night, said the most beautiful love words... Jane Mo wanted to clear her mind and was defeated in an instant. On the terrace, under the moonlight Hands with hot seeds reach into the Nightgown... So that a flame spreading in the name of love burns like a raging fire. Jane Mo didn''t know when she was led back to the room by Gu Beichen. On that big bed, she played the most beautiful chord in the world with him Because Jian Mo is pregnant, although the dangerous period has passed, Gu Beichen still doesn''t dare to occupy and attack too recklessly. In this way, although he is immersed in love, he can never get the most enjoyable satisfaction. "I''ll help you..." Jane Mo said in a charming voice. Gu Beichen loves Jian Mo, "go to sleep!" Jane Mo is not obedient and takes the target with her small hand Gu Beichen''s body suddenly froze, "Mo''er!" Jane Mo''s face has been crimson because of her shyness. Although she and Gu Beichen have been shameless, she didn''t get less tricks in those two years... But her mentality was different from now. Now I want to make him comfortable and happy Gu Beichen''s "depression" is nothing more than Jian mo. with her help, he gets a sense of satisfaction. The moonlight is as calm as water. The beautiful moon and the ugly moon are overlooking the ugly world in the sky. Shi Shaoqin sat under the umbrella, and the light cast a shadow. Inside the slender finger is a glass test tube with liquid like water. The eyes with deep and cold vision rotate slightly with the rotation of fingers. Morson stood far away and looked at the light, beating Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful handsome face softly as if it were an unreal picture. He couldn''t figure it out. Qin Shao got the medicine and didn''t act at the first time. What''s more, I don''t understand... What he''s thinking now. "Mosen..." Shi Shaoqin said suddenly. Mausen''s heart was startled and hurried forward, "Qin Shao?" "You say..." Shi Shaoqin''s pretty mouth slowly raised, and a soft smile overflowed. "Progesterone hormone can dilute silence, doesn''t it mean... It doesn''t matter as long as you''re not pregnant?" Morson didn''t understand why Shi Shaoqin said this suddenly, but he still hung his eyes and replied, "in principle, yes!" Shi Shaoqin smiled, took the medicine in his hand and held it in his hand. "In fact... As long as Jian Mo''s child doesn''t exist, it''s OK, isn''t it?" Mosen''s heart ''clattered'', "Qin Shao means..." Shi Shaoqin stood up with a cold look in his eyes. "If the child is lost, Jian Mo will suffer... Chen, even more." Morson felt a chill in the soles of his feet... Gradually spread to his whole body. Qin Shao didn''t act at all. He was just thinking... What kind of circumstances can make the other party suffer the most. This is him! Shi juechi stood on the terrace on the third floor of the ancient castle and looked at the surging waves in the night. His gentle face formed a strong contrast with the roaring sea at the moment. "Dong Dong!" Knocking on the door disrupted the peace of the room. Shi juechi slowly turned around, went back to the bedroom and opened the door. At the door, Xiao Siyue stood there with something in her hand and a strange look. "Never less!" "Come in..." Shi juechi''s voice was soft and weak. Xiao Siyue clutched the things in her hand and walked in with a dignified face, "never less... Do you really want..." "Siyue!" Shi juechi interrupted her, "I have no way, do you understand?" "But..." Xiao Siyue gritted her teeth and stubbornly stopped what she wanted to say. Shi Jue Chi turned around, and his gentle back seemed to weigh down a mountain. He went to the sofa and sat down. Xiao Siyue stood and looked at him. He picked up the teapot and poured two glasses of water. Then he dragged his heavy body and sat down opposite him. The hand holding things is getting tighter and tighter. Even, Xiao Siyue has an impulse to leave... With the fastest speed. She doesn''t want to face Shi juechi, at least... Not at this moment! Shi juechi looked calm, as if what was going to happen next had nothing to do with him. Xiao Siyue grabbed the cup with some impatience and drank all the tea in it. Then she said stuffy, "Carney and the sample won''t agree with you!" "So I didn''t look for them, I looked for you!" Shi juechi smiled, looked at Xiao Siyue''s angry look with warm eyes, and sighed, "Siyue, you and I know that Shaoqin can''t go on like this..." "But are you not afraid of causing him a burden by doing so?" Xiao Siyue''s voice was a little loud because of dissatisfaction. "What can I do?" Shi juechi was still indifferent, but there was self mockery in his voice, "I don''t know what weakness Shaoqin has. I only know that the only thing that can make him restrain temporarily is me!" Shi juechi leaned over, took the tea cup and drank Then he put it down, got up and walked to a cabinet with a photo on it... It''s a group photo of two children, one with a cold face and the other with a smile as bright as the sun. "I''m his weakness..." Shi juechi opened his mouth and his eyes fell on the cold faced child. "Forcing him to let go is the only thing I can do!" Chapter 602 The next day, the originally hot city of Los Angeles became cool because of a sudden drizzle. When genius is shining, everything is shrouded in fog... In the air, you can smell the moist smell. Jane Mo didn''t sleep well in the middle of the night. When Gu Beichen got up, she woke up. "Why don''t you sleep more?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo painfully and asked. Jane Mo fanned her lower eyelashes and shook her head, "I can''t sleep well when I''m pregnant..." Gu Beichen put his big hand on Jian Mo''s belly, "is this the same when pregnant with Xiaojie?" Jian Mo knew that Gu Beichen felt guilty and shook his head with a smile. "The milk bag is very good. It''s very good when you''re in your stomach..." "Really?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes and didn''t expose her white lie. "Get up and have breakfast together?" Jane nodded, got up and washed, and went downstairs with Gu Beichen Aunt Luo has prepared breakfast. When she saw the two people coming down, she smiled and said hello, "Chen Shaozao, madam Shao Zao." "Good morning, aunt Luo!" Jane Mo responded with a smile. Aunt Luo looked at Beichen and her smile deepened a lot... Only Mrs. Shao can make Chen Shao live normally. Alas, I hope something will happen to them again. Gu Beichen was eating breakfast while reading the financial newspaper. Jane Mo is not idle, surfing the Internet with her mobile phone and brushing the latest news in Los Angeles It''s all about her. Especially a borrowed photo of her being pressed by Shao Shi, the heat has not decreased at all these days. "Do you believe it?" Jane Mo asked for no reason. Gu Beichen glanced at her, "I don''t believe..." "Really?" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously. "After all, it''s likely that my thoughts were controlled by Shaoshi at that time." Gu Beichen smiled. "I don''t know whether it''s controlled or whether you resist... I only know," he flashed proudly at the bottom of his eyes. "I''ve arrived before he can do anything!" Jane froze for a while, then suddenly remembered... The scene of this photo is in the villa of crescent lake. Pie pie mouth, put down the mobile phone, "ah Chen..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen answered. Jane Mo sighed and asked, "is Zixiao all right?" "It depends on what you want and what the result is." Gu Beichen replied calmly, "I''ve become a vegetable and my life is not in danger. I want to wake up... Yunze said it depends on miracles." Jane Mo has a heavy heart. In the end, they have been in love... Although fate has widened the distance between the two people, and even a lot of things have happened between them, she doesn''t want this to be the end of Zixiao. "When I''m finished today, I''ll go and see him with you..." Gu Beichen put down the newspaper, looked at Jian Mo and said. Jane murmured at the corners of her mouth and nodded, "OK." After answering the voice, she began to eat breakfast silently Although she firmly believed in being with ah Chen, she occasionally wondered whether it was her selfishness... That led to many things and developed into today''s situation. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and his thin lips moved back and forth, but he didn''t speak at last. Some things can only be relieved by thinking and laughing at themselves. "After dinner, I''ll pick up Xiaomo at home..." I said Gu Beichen knows that Jian Mo is considerate of him. When she is in the company, his mind is always on her, and the work efficiency is obviously low. "I have a gift for you in my study," Gu Beichen pointed his belly across Jian Mo''s cheek. "It''s raining outside. Just read at home and have a good rest, huh?" Jian Mo smiled and nodded, watched Gu Beichen go out and went to the French window... Until he saw his car leave the villa, he turned and went upstairs to his study. Push open the door and memory comes to my face OK, what you are pregnant with is her memory, the memory of her and Gu Beichen. Jane Mo doesn''t know what gift Gu Beichen gave her. They have been together these two days... She estimates that the gift should have been prepared when she was away. Jane Mo looked around and looked at all the obvious places, but she couldn''t find anything suitable as a gift at all. Sitting in Gu Beichen''s office chair, Jane Mo turned around and frowned, "what gift is it?" At the same time, her eyes fell on the pile of paper documents in the corner of her desk. Subconsciously, without much thought, she got up and held the pile to her, flipping one by one... You know, the last piece of paper came into sight. Above, the frame diagram with neat lines shows the impact that goes straight to the heart This is an incomplete architectural design, but for Jian Mo, this frame drawing can form a 3D effect in her mind! The nose is a little sour. Jian Mo keeps looking at the frame diagram. Gradually, the eyes become ruddy, and the fundus is filled with a thin layer of water mist Jian Mo pasted the drawing on his chest. At that moment, his eyes couldn''t bear the tears overflowing from joy. They ran hot across his cheeks and fainted at the corners of his mouth Is it salty? Not This is the happiness under the firm! Sniffing, Jian Mo picked up her mobile phone and sent a text message to Gu Beichen: husband, I found a design drawing! Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a smile. As he stepped out of the elevator, he replied to the past: Well, that''s a gift for you. Jane wiped the tears off the gift. Gu Beichen''s smile deepened, went into the office, asked Susan to put down the documents to be approved, and replied: of course, the rest is for you to complete... Don''t tell me, you are a top student from UCL, and you can''t integrate the map. Jane Mo burst out laughing and looked at the text message. At that moment, there was an illusion that she had returned to those two years: what was the name of the design? Gu Beichen quickly replied: home! So we need to finish it together Jian Mo''s finger belly gently crossed the word "home". Because of the touch screen, the two words were brushed blue on the background. He knows her all the time! There''s no need for her to say anything It''s raining outside. It''s not big, but it doesn''t stop. Everything in the world is shrouded in the haze under the drizzle. Gu Beichen, a 79 storey building in the depths, seems to be in the clouds. Except for several buildings in Los Angeles, he has a broad view. The internal telephone rang suddenly. Gu Beichen picked it up and there was a knock at the door. Then Xiao Jing hurried in. Gu Beichen glanced at him and motioned to wait. "Chen Shao," Susan''s voice came, "someone just called and said that Jane Chang is in their hands and wants a ten million ransom!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "how can I reply?" "Refused!" Susan looked cold. "The other party said they would call again." "Call again and pick it up..." after Gu Beichen spoke indifferently, he hung up the inside line and looked at Xiao Jing, "what''s the matter?" Xiao Jing stepped forward, "Chen Shao, Shi Shaoqin disappeared..." Chapter 603 Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were suddenly cold. Mo Tong looked at Xiao Jing sharply and asked in a deep voice, "disappear? What do you mean?" "The news came from the people nearby," Xiao Jing was a little anxious. "There has been no movement over the crescent lake. In the morning, they felt something was wrong, so they came forward to investigate... But there was no one inside!" His breathing was a little short, "Chen Shao, will you..." Gu Beichen suddenly stood up and walked out with big steps While walking, she took her cell phone and dialed Jane Mo''s number! However, the mobile phone kept ringing and no one answered He lost his cool head and hurriedly called the villa, but no one answered! "Is everyone dead?" Gu Beichen clenched his teeth and growled. He pressed the finger of the underground parking lot and kept pressing the number key of the elevator. In the narrow elevator, Gu Beichen kept dialing the phone, and Xiao Jing''s face was also heavy. "Let the guard go and have a look..." Xiao Jing said and hurriedly dialed the phone of the villa guard. "Where''s everyone, young husband?" The guard looked into the yard through the window, holding an umbrella and Jane Mo, who was cutting flowers next to the flower bed by Aunt Luo, said blankly: "cutting flowers in the villa yard..." After hearing this, Xiao Jing breathed out and explained a few words to Gu Beichen, "Madam Shao is still in the villa and in the yard with aunt Luo." Gu Beichen closed his eyes and secretly suppressed his inner panic. When the elevator arrived, he opened his eyes and secretly blamed himself for caring. "Go back and have a look..." Gu Beichen was still worried and stepped out of the elevator. In fact, Xiao Jing is not at ease. Shi Shaoqin doesn''t know when he left the monitoring... Although they know very well that it''s impossible for their people to watch Shi Shaoqin. The car drove smoothly and quickly to the villa in the middle of the mountain in the rain Although he learned that Jian Mo was in the villa, Gu Beichen was still uneasy. Such uneasiness comes from the understanding of Shi Shaoqin "Squeak -" The car stopped at the villa parking lot. Xiao Jing got off with an umbrella and went to see the door in the back seat. Gu Beichen got out of the car and was about to leave. He heard Xiao Jing say, "Chen Shao, look..." Gu Beichen looked in the direction pointed by Xiao Jing. Jian Mo stepped into the flower bed with an umbrella in one hand and trouser legs in the other Aunt Luo held a large bunch of all kinds of flowers in her hand. While Jane Mo handed them over, she pointed to something. Gu Beichen didn''t move or speak. He just looked at the scene quietly... All the worries and anxieties before became calm at this moment. "Hey, how did Chen Shao come back?" Aunt Luo was surprised. Jane Mo was stunned and looked at the parking lot... She saw the drizzle on the huge black umbrella, and the tall figure stood proudly there. Slightly frowned, Jian Mo handed the cut flower branches to Aunt Luo and went out of the flower bed, "aunt Luo, hold the flowers in first..." "Good!" Aunt Luo answered with a clear smile in her mouth. Jane Mo walked to Gu Beichen with her umbrella. "Why did you come back suddenly?" "Come back and get a document..." Gu Beichen lied casually. Jane Mo looked at Xiao Jing. "Let Xiao Jing come back and get it... You come back together, right?" Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face had no embarrassment because the lie had been exposed. He just came forward, took Jian Mo''s hand and walked to the villa with her umbrella "Actually, I just want to see you." Gu Beichen said softly and deeply, "well, see what you look like to my gift?" Jane Mo didn''t believe Gu Beichen''s words, but she didn''t continue to ask. "What about now?" Gu Beichen sighed, "obviously, my gift didn''t have a great impact on you!" Jane Mo glanced at Gu Beichen and stopped, "how do you know it didn''t have an impact on me?" "If so, shouldn''t you draw a design at the table now?" Gu Beichen asked back with a smile. "I''m just going to put a bottle of flowers on the table and start painting..." Jane Mo suddenly stopped and looked at Gu Beichen''s evil smile. Knowing that she had been teased, she immediately bared her teeth. Gu Beichen took her into the villa, put Jian Mo on the shoe stool, took the towel handed over by Aunt Luo, squatted and wiped the rain and soil on her feet. The warm big master Jian Mo''s ankle. Every time, he rubbed it very seriously. Jian Mo watched Gu Beichen squat and kneel there in suits and shoes, wiping her gently and carefully... She was so moved in her heart. There is a person who is willing to lay down his body for you and feel it''s worth doing everything for you. Then... This person is the one you can trust for life without scruples. The rapid footsteps interrupted Jane Mo''s thoughts. She subconsciously looked up and looked at the Xiao Jing standing at the door. Xiao Jing looked as if he wanted to stop talking. Jane Mo shrunk her feet, smiled and said, "didn''t you come back to get the documents?" She looked at Gu Beichen and said, "I''ll arrange flowers and draw design drawings... Each busy!" Then he stood up considerately and went to find aunt Luo. Gu Beichen didn''t get up, but looked at Jian Mo''s back and gradually deepened his eyes "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing shouted. Gu Beichen stood up. "Have you heard from Shi Shaoqin?" Although he was asking, it was obvious that he was sure. Xiao nodded, "said he went to the airport..." "Airport?" Gu Beichen looks at Xiao Jing unexpectedly. Xiao Jing nodded again. "I checked the flight. It''s the plane half an hour later... Looking at the distance, I should go back to Mo palace!" Gu Beichen frowned. He was very surprised that Shi Shaoqin left at this moment... He couldn''t think of it more. "How?" Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and whispered. "Chen Shao, can it be a cover up?" Xiao Jing asked suspiciously. Gu Beichen shook his head, "he is so conceited and confident. Such a circuitous game is not what he likes to play..." Because you can''t get direct satisfaction! ¡­¡­ In the VIP waiting room of Los Angeles International Airport, the sound can be heard as if a needle had fallen off. Shi Shaoqin''s gorgeous face was shrouded in a layer of haze and dark. Morson didn''t dare to breathe, but stood quietly aside. Shi Shaoqin closed his eyes, his temples twitched because of forbearance, and then slowly opened them At the right time, the mobile phone vibrates in the pocket. He didn''t move. After a while, the vibration of the mobile phone stopped. When it vibrated again, he went to get the mobile phone He picked it up and put it in his ear. Shi Shaoqin''s long and narrow eyes were full of anger that was about to explode. "Qin Shao, never Shao, the situation is very dangerous!" There was an anxious voice on the phone. After hearing this, Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes and squeezed out from his teeth word by word: "anything happened to juechi... I''ll let you all be buried with me!" Chapter 604 The rain, pattering, is not big or small, and there is a kind of silence under the hazy sound. Shi Shaoqin''s sudden abnormal behavior made Gu Beichen uneasy. He simply asked Susan to send the documents to be approved to the villa, and he also put his office back in his study Jian Mo didn''t pierce Gu Beichen''s move. His worry came from his uneasiness about Shaoshi, especially about the possibility that she might be hurt. As before, Gu Beichen handled the affairs of emperor group in his study, and Jian Mo drew a design drawing at the dining table This scene is as warm as ever, but there is unspeakable astringency in the air. Xiao Jing opened the door, took in his umbrella and changed his shoes. Jian Mo looked and saw that he was in a hurry, so he walked to the second floor, frowning slightly, and his eyes were full of doubts. After Xiao Jing knocked on the door of the study, before there was a sound inside, someone had pushed the door and walked in "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing''s voice was a little hasty, "confirmed that Shi Shaoqin and Mosen have landed and are taking a special plane to Mo palace. They will take off in ten minutes." Gu Beichen is still holding a signature pen in his hand. He piles up a pile of documents and waits for instructions. Xiao Jing came forward, opened the opposite chair and sat down. He frowned at Gu Beichen and said, "is something wrong with the Mo palace?" Gu Beichen still didn''t speak, just put down his pen, got up and walked to the window Under the drizzle, everything in the world seems to be covered with a layer of gauze, making people unable to see the truth. "Shi Shaoqin has never been impatient and lost his square inch..." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and his low voice slowly overflowed. "Even if something happened to the Mo palace, he couldn''t go back in such a hurry." Such a big dark force basically controls the supply of drugs and arms in Southeast Asia. Even in Europe and the United States, it also occupies a strong share in the underground market. If a person who leads such a place and is not destroyed by international organizations loses his composure in case of trouble, he will not be unable to deal with it. Gu Beichen slightly narrowed the eagle''s eyes until they became a gap and suddenly opened... The indifferent eyes became deep and bottomless. The dignified air was so oppressed by the temporary silence that people couldn''t breathe. Xiao Jing gradually clenched his hand, twisted his eyebrows and said, "whether he left now or not, it''s a time bomb." "Yes!" Gu Beichen sneered coldly, but he didn''t know whether it was to himself or Shi Shaoqin. "No matter what happened in the Mo palace, as long as it was solved, he would always come back." Xiao Jingcheng bit his teeth. Now this situation is too passive... Because there is no way to take the initiative! "Dong Dong!" The knock on the door suddenly came, and a small voice broke the dignified air in the study. Xiao Jing glanced at Gu Beichen, got up and opened the door, "young lady." "Aunt Luo just made coffee..." Jane Mo said with a smile, "here!" She handed Xiao Jing two cups of coffee in her hand. She looked at her and stood by the window. Gu Beichen smiled. She didn''t even enter the door of the study. She turned and went downstairs. Xiao Jing was surprised, but he breathed again. Bring in the coffee, close the door and say, "it''s really bad to wait for the fight." "I want to take the initiative. Which of you is willing?" Gu Beichen hissed coldly. Xiao Jing grinned secretly, took a cup of coffee and began to drink, as if he hadn''t heard Gu Beichen''s words. Are you kidding? Take the initiative... Who dares to make Chen Shao so crazy? One careless, everything goes back to before liberation It''s almost impossible to save Chen Shao from the Mo Palace this time. It''s still raining. I don''t know whether it''s because the cloudy weather is depressing or because I feel sad about it When the gear of the plane crossed the exclusive apron of Mo palace, I disagreed with the continuous drizzle in Los Angeles. The sun was shining here, which seemed to scorch people. Shi Shaoqin got off the plane, and the attendants bowed 90 degrees, "Qin Shaoqin!" He didn''t have a regular meeting with people, but walked to the castle with a cold face... Along the way, the cold left on his body dissipated the heat and frozen the air. With a bang, Shi Shaoqin pushed open the door of Shi juechi''s bedroom. I don''t know whether it''s because the movement is too loud or because the people inside are too nervous. When the voice came, everyone''s heart suddenly startled. The medical staff, Kani and Xiaoxiang stopped their actions one by one and turned to look at Shi Shaoqin standing at the door. Everyone''s faces changed to varying degrees. On the contrary, Shi Shaoqin didn''t have the worry of just rushing. He raised his feet and walked very slowly step by step. He finally stood on the bed and looked at lying on the bed. His face looked haggard, as if he was going to see the king of hell''s Shi juechi in the next moment. His narrow eyes gradually became familiar with the bottom. "Very good!" Two words, slowly overflow the lip flap. There was no tone of voice, which condensed the air in such a big bedroom. All the people dared not breathe, and stood in place one by one... With the passage of time, cold sweat overflowed from their backs. "Who gave the medicine?" Shi Shaoqin asked again. Carney and the sample looked at each other, lowered their eyes and didn''t speak "What?" Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "let me ask again?" "Qin Shao..." Carney said hard, "if you don''t have anything in your hand!" He gritted his teeth. "Since... After Jian Mo, you''ve been very close to him going to the drug store, haven''t you?" Shi Shaoqin looked at Shi juechi again. His face was whiter than paper and had no blood at all. "That means... He was ready to restrict my day very early?" Is it doubt or affirmation... Others can''t know. However, both Carney and the sample know that this time Qin Shao''s anger... Will not be smaller than that year, but more sharp! "Shao... Qin..." The weak voice broke the dignity of the room. The medical staff subconsciously looked at Shi juechi. It has been five or six hours since they found his physical condition... We all know that this time, it will not be as simple as before. "You..." Shi juechi couldn''t say a complete word in his breath. He looked at the sample and Carney, swallowed, closed his eyes and opened them. Kani and Xiaoxiang are close to Shi juechi after all. They know his intentions very well. Everyone looked at Shi Shaoqin again and waited for him to speak. Shi juechi didn''t know whether it was because he was too weak or something. He looked at Shi Shaoqin and closed his eyes. Shi Shaoqin looked at Shi juechi with sharp eyes for a long time. Just then he opened his beautiful lips and said coldly, "you all go out!" "Yes!" The medical staff left the bedroom with Carney and the sample. When Carney closed the door, his eyes were filled with complex emotions. With a click, the door was closed. Shi juechi slowly opened his eyes and looked at Shi Shaoqin "Juechi, you''re threatening me... Huh?" Cold words overflow without a trace of temperature. Chapter 605 Shi juechi weakly fanned his eyes and looked at Shi Shaoqin''s expressionless face. The corners of his mouth tried to pull out a smile Although, at last, the smile didn''t come out because of weakness, but brought out astringency. But his heart is still warm... Because he came back at the first time, didn''t he? "Yes..." Shi juechi said weakly, "I... I''m... Threatening... Threatening you!" Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were suddenly cold and burst out two shocking lights. He said it was one thing, but Shi juechi''s unscrupulous admission was another. "How dare you?" Shi Shaoqin gnashed his teeth. Shi juechi was a little sad. "Anyway... Anyway, my body... It''s just... That''s it..." he gasped and then said, "morning... Morning and evening... Isn''t it?" There was a bang, followed by the muffled sound of porcelain bottles falling on the plush carpet. After such a sound, the bedroom became silent. Shi juechi lowered his eyes and slightly tilted his head to look out of the window The dazzling sunlight shone through the clean glass. He raised his hand powerlessly and tried to grasp it, but he couldn''t. "Shaoqin, Shaoqin... I can catch the sunshine!" Four or five-year-old children in English shirt, vest and trousers are running happily on the beach, "look!" "Juechi, don''t be naive..." the same little thing, the corners of your mouth swing like sunshine, warm and genial, "no one can catch the sunshine." "How?" Xiao Shi Jue Chi looked at him, "you are the sunshine, I''ve been holding on!" Xiaoshi Shaoqin smiled more brightly, "well, I''m your eternal sunshine... You can always grasp it!" Shi juechi''s eyes are a little red. How beautiful she was when she was a child and how cruel she is now! "Shaoqin..." Shi juechi weakly hammered his hand. When he didn''t catch the sunshine, "let go... OK?" He said, taking back his sight out of the window and looking at the tight thing of Jumei Junyan again, "even if you can''t go back to... The past... Can''t, can''t let go... The present... The present yourself?" The words just fell, and the grief seemed to spread in an instant... Stung Shi Juxi''s nerve. "I won''t promise you anything..." Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "juechi, when you threaten me with your own body, you should know that I will only charge all this to their account!" "Shaoqin!" Shi juechi clenched his teeth and shouted. Then, he was not comfortable in one breath and began to cough violently. Shi Shaoqin watched Shi juechi coughing there indifferently. However, his sight was getting deeper and deeper, just like the sea before the storm, which was about to bring a tsunami and sweep everything at any time. After coughing for a long time, I felt that Shi juechi was almost out of breath, and then slowly relieved. Once again, the calm in the bedroom was restored. However, the two people who confronted each other, one with so much anger, and the other weak, like falling dust. Looking at Shi juechi like this, Shi Shaoqin finally compromised and said with gnashing teeth, "I can let go for a while..." he said, hissing softly, "juechi, have you ever thought... This is a temporary cure rather than a permanent cure?" Then he snorted coldly, turned and walked out Shi juechi didn''t speak, but his eyes moved sadly with Shi Shaoqin''s figure... Until he disappeared outside the door. He knows He doesn''t expect to be able to contain it all the time! But at least let Mo Mo determine whether the child stays or not until it is born, isn''t it? Carney and the sample came in, a helpless evil spirit, a simple and honest face with dignity. "Never less," said the little sample in a rough voice. "You can''t just restrict Qin less." Carney glanced sideways at him and said astringently, "everyone has everyone''s persistence... In fact, I don''t know that qinshao will never go back to the past, will he?" "Give me... For him!" Shi juechi finished and closed his eyes. He is Shaoqin''s weakness, not only because they are compatriots, but also because... His body will be like this, entirely because of him. However, Shaoqin didn''t understand... Can''t he get rid of his relationship when he became like this? ¡­¡­ It rained in Los Angeles for several days. When the weather clears up, the moisture is evaporated, which makes people feel weak. It was originally scheduled to see Chu Zixiao that day. However, due to the turbulence of the stock market abroad and the time difference, Gu Beichen had to hold a temporary meeting, and finally failed to go. "Little aunt..." Luo Xiaomi rubbed against Jian Mo, "well... Let me interview." "Ask your little uncle." Jane Mo said calmly. Luo Xiaomi was bitter. "I want to interview you, not my little uncle..." she began to pull Jian Mo''s arm and act like a spoiled girl, "little aunt... Little aunt..." "No!" The cold and indisputable voice came from upstairs, and Gu Beichen walked down from upstairs with one hand. Luo Xiaomi immediately blocked his mouth and said, "overbearing..." Jian Mo looked at Luo Xiaomi''s dissatisfied appearance and smiled at the corners of his mouth, "I''m a man of the moment now. Just let me go!" "I can write the whole manuscript..." Luo Xiaomi still didn''t give up. "When you let go of your love with your little uncle, don''t you slap those who speak?" As she spoke, she turned her mouth angrily. "These people are full all day and can''t see others well all day." "You''re not used to being a media player?" Jane Mo squeezed a strawberry into her mouth. "Wait, we''re going to see Zixiao. Are you going?" Speaking of Chu Zixiao, Luo Xiaomi suddenly remembered something and brightened his eyes, "yes, speaking of forms, I have another gossip. Do you want to listen?" "Don''t..." "Why?" Luo Xiaomi frowned. Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "Didn''t you come in exchange?" "..." Luo Xiaomi twitched at the corners of his mouth, turned his head to Gu Beichen, who was sitting down, and groaned discontentedly, "I hate dealing with people with double business height!" "The third sister said, you seldom go home recently?" Gu Beichen suddenly spoke. Luo Xiaomi''s body stiffened. He looked back at Gu Beichen and saw his sharp eyes projected. He grabbed the bag around him and got up and ran out "Well, I have to dig news, so I won''t go to the hospital with you... Bye, little uncle and little aunt!" When the words fell, the smaller figure had slipped out of the door. Jane Mo smiled, "I''m surprised. Xiaomi obviously likes you very much. Why are you so afraid of you?" "Dignity is something that can only be understood!" Gu Beichen said with an eyebrow. At the right time, the mobile phone vibrated. He picked it up, looked at the call, looked slightly sluggish, got up and went outside The smile on the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth was frozen there. Through the French window, she looked at Gu Beichen who answered the phone. Her heart... Suddenly became uneasy. Chapter 606 "News?" Gu Beichen opened his mouth indifferently, and his voice was dignified with meaning. "Grandpa is suspicious..." Chen Xuan said helplessly, "but I still went to contact Mo palace." "What do you say?" Gu Beichen did not change his face. Chen Xuan sighed softly, "Shi Shaoqin has returned to the Mo palace, but he doesn''t know why... Moreover, the transaction is still closed." After a pause, he was a little strange. "This year, the golden triangle has failed to harvest, and more than 60% of the share in Southeast Asia has been occupied by Mo palace. He is now closing the transaction, isn''t he waiting for all parties to find something?" "Ink palace has the deterrent power of ink palace..." Gu Beichen didn''t talk about this topic, just said, "thank you." He won''t participate in those dark transactions in the Mo palace, and naturally he won''t touch them Some things, once you touch, will touch, and finally want to let go, it''s not easy! "No need to thank you. You should remember the human feelings!" Chen Xuan''s words, hidden deep meaning, "you know, what do I mean?" Gu Beichen smiled, "I won''t participate in the affair between you and Li Jinxi... I will pay back the favor." In a word, it blocked Chen Xuan''s thoughts. "Gu Beichen, I''m so tired to deal with you!" Chen Xuan was dissatisfied, "except for this matter, I really don''t need you." Gu Beichen smiled at the corners of his mouth and just said, "come back and have a drink." "OK." Chen Xuan promised readily, "hang up." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered and hung up. After a pause of a few seconds, he turned back to the villa and saw Jian Mo looking at him discontentedly with his thin lips. "What do you want to ask?" Gu Beichen sat down and took a sip of coffee. "I don''t want to ask anything!" Jane looked proud, "anyway, you won''t tell the truth." Gu Beichen frivolously frowned, "so sure?" Jane Mo shrugged, "husband..." she shouted crisply and smiled with eyes like silk. "I still know a little about you." Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually became deep, "why, don''t you want to see Zixiao?" "What?" Jane Mo was stunned immediately. Gu Beichen had a faint smile of evil charm on his mouth. While turning the newspaper, he said gently and vaguely: "I don''t mind going back to bed now... Today, I still have more time." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "busy flow!" "Well, it''s only for you..." Gu Beichen said solemnly, and even the glance at Jian Mo was taken for granted. "..." Jane Mo was speechless again, and then turned her mouth, bared her teeth, and stopped talking. ¡­¡­ Shi juechi''s condition has been repeated in recent days, sometimes sober and sometimes unconscious The huge bedroom is full of medical instruments. In the corridor, there are famous cardiothoracic experts from all over the world. Everyone is studying it solemnly. "The success rate of the operation is too low..." "But if this goes on, the heart will also cause unbearable pressure, which will not be more optimistic." "In today''s situation, whether conservative treatment or surgery, there are great risks." "Everyone knows... The best way is to control the current condition and have a heart transplant at the most effective and favorable time." "You seem to have missed two questions..." Everyone looked at the old man with white hair who came to talk first, "Smith, what?" "Because of his body, the reception of foreign hearts is no more than 5%... In addition, his physique may not be able to support the whole heart replacement operation." Smith said calmly. People''s faces became more dignified Smith''s face was also dignified. In his blue eyes, there was an indescribable emotion, "otherwise, the operation could not be delayed until now..." Who is Shi Shaoqin? It''s too easy to find one or even ten hearts in line with Shi Juxi''s constitution in the world. However, no matter how consistent it is, it cannot be accommodated by Shi juechi''s sensitive constitution Everyone looked at Smith, sighed deeply at last, and began to be nervous... After all, whether we can leave this place alive depends on whether the patient can get out of danger at last. "Qin Shao..." Mosen opened the door and looked at Shi Shaoqin standing by the window with heavy curtains. "Jueshao''s condition is stable for the time being." Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak or even move, just like a sculpture. Morson stood and waited, but with the passage of time, the feeling of his heart being pressed became heavier and heavier. "The golden Sanjiao is in arrears this year..." Shi Shaoqin slowly opened his mouth, paused, and then said, "release the news... There are only five goods in the ink Palace this quarter." "Ah?" Morson looked at Shi Shaoqin in surprise, "Qin Shao, that..." The goods are scarce originally. If there are only five stores, it will not turn the world upside down on the road? Shi Shaoqin turned slowly. "Doesn''t Chen want to build a bridge from the Chen family so much?" He sneered, "I promised Juxi not to take care of them for the time being... But if he wants to wade in muddy water, I can''t stop it, can I?" Morson''s eyes crossed the complex emotion, but it was only a flash, and he almost didn''t notice it. "Yes!" Mosen answered, "I''ll do it now!" Then he turned and left. However, at the moment of turning around, there was a cruel scratch on his face Maybe... This is also his chance! The door closed gently, and the sound of "clicking" lock fell on the empty corridor of the ancient castle, with a strange smell. Morsen''s footsteps stepped on the long woolen carpet, and his figure was pulled long by the light... It was strange as if he wanted to lead to hell, and also as if he wanted to push human soul into hell! ¡­¡­ Huakang hospital. When Gu Beichen and Jian Mo arrived, a sharp sound was coming from Chu Zixiao''s ward. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at Jian Mo, and they accelerated their steps one after another. When he opened the door, he saw that Gu Ci was scolding a little nurse. He didn''t know what had happened. "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen spoke. Seeing someone coming in, the little nurse quickly turned her head and wiped her tears. Gu CI turned around and saw that it was Gu Beichen. Just when he wanted to speak, he saw Jian Mo behind him. His face suddenly changed several times and then stabilized. "She secretly did what natural recovery, said what she expected, and looked forward to miracles..." she was so angry that she snorted, "I''d like to ask Yunze. Will he arrange such special care for Zixiao?" Gu Beichen looked at the little nurse and saw that there was still moisture in her eyes. He looked at him and gasped his lips. He was a little wronged. "Elder sister, since Yunze arranged for her, it must be reasonable..." Gu Beichen said indifferently, "she shouldn''t be doing this just today, hasn''t she always been all right?" "Hum!" Gu CI Leng hum, "although Zixiao is a vegetable now, he is still alive... I don''t want him to be a living victim of someone''s experiment!" Gu Beichen immediately changed his face, "elder sister!" Chapter 607 Jane Mo''s face was calm, and she knew that Gu CI had said her in by the way through the little nurse. Gu CI mercilessly gouged out Jian Mo''s eyes, looked at Gu Beichen''s face, bit his teeth, and didn''t continue to scold locust, "I''ll go to Yunze and give Zixiao another special care." As soon as the little nurse heard this, her eyes became more red... The corners of her mouth moved back and forth, and then she tightened her eyes and looked at Gu CI. "Let me go with my eldest sister!" Gu Beichen opened his mouth lightly and looked at Jian mo. Jane nodded and made way of the door of the ward. Gu CI doesn''t want Jian Mo to get along with Chu Zixiao alone. However, he hopes that Zixiao can keep his thoughts, and there is really a miracle Endure endure, finally also when acquiescence, and Gu Beichen left the ward together. It seems that there is no pressure in CI Li''s ward. The little nurse quietly went to pack up and carefully covered Chu Zixiao''s quilt, so she wanted to leave "Wait!" Jane Mo called the nurse. The little nurse looked at Jian Mo and smiled at the corner of her mouth before asking, "what''s up?" "I want to ask about Zixiao..." Jane Mo said with a smile, "are you the nurse who has been taking care of him?" The little nurse nodded and looked at Jane Mo, who wanted to stop talking Jane Mo did not urge her, but waited quietly. "He..." the little nurse looked at Chu Zixiao as if he were sleeping, and then looked at Jian Mo and said, "he likes to listen to your things, both good and bad... Usually he will change at that time." As she spoke, there was a faint streak in her eyes. Although it was fast, Jane Mo still noticed it. "Well... I''ll go out first!" The little nurse pulled the corners of her mouth and smiled, and wanted to turn around. "What''s your name?" Jane Mo suddenly asked curiously. The little nurse seemed a little strange. Jane Mo would ask like this. After looking at her, she still replied with a smile: "Zhang Nian!" Jane Mo nodded with a smile and watched Zhang read out of the ward. Then she went to the chair next to Chu Zixiao''s hospital bed and sat down Looking at the thin handsome face, Jane Mo couldn''t help sighing. Chu Zixiao was once such a high spirited man. He was a man of the moment in the law department of Luoda... He has never failed since he came out. Even if he won Mo Shaochen, he used some means... But from a professional point of view, he was not wrong. "Zixiao, I''m back..." Jane Mo opened her mouth gently and looked dignified. In the empty ward, there was no sound to answer her She lowered her eyes and gently hit Chu Zixiao''s hand, with a trace of cold feeling in the warmth. "Don''t you want to apologize to me?" Jane Mo endured her sadness and smiled at the corners of her mouth, but she was bitter. "You make me feel guilty, don''t you?" Then she looked at Chu Zixiao, and her face became more and more dignified. Silence has become what Jane Mo doesn''t want to do at the moment, but is doing again Before she came, she wanted to say a lot, but now she can''t say it. If you want a vegetable to wake up with a miracle, let him have the desire to survive... Jane Mo knows. Just, at this moment, she looked at Chu Zixiao''s lifeless appearance, and suddenly didn''t know what to do? At the door, footsteps came in gradually. Jane Mo raised her hand holding Chu Zixiao''s hand. In due time, the door of the ward was pushed open It''s Gu CI! Jane Mo got up, "big sister!" Gu CI seemed to try to restrain something. He didn''t have a good face, but he didn''t choke. Jian Mo said, "Zixiao is like this. I know I can''t put the responsibility on you..." Jane Mo didn''t speak. "Little Jane, although you get what you need when you are with Beichen, you really don''t know the relationship between Beichen and Zixiao?" Gu CI asked. Jian Mo pulled down the corner of her mouth with self mockery. "I also learned later..." she looked at Chu Zixiao. "I only know that he adores his little uncle, but I don''t know who his little uncle is." Chu Zixiao is a confident and conceited man. When he was in school, few people knew his family background Otherwise, how could she not think about the relationship between the childe of Chu group and emperor group at all? Gu Ci''s mouth moved, but he didn''t say anything. Gu CI also knows what happened when Chu Zixiao was at school "I''ll come here when I have time recently..." Jian Mo said. Seeing that Gu CI wanted to refute, she said calmly immediately. "I think what elder sister thinks now... Should also make Zixiao wake up." Gu CI swallowed back in an unwilling voice, and said angrily, "Jane, I don''t care about anything else. Since grandma supports you and Beichen, Beichen also has obsession with you... I just hope you don''t hurt both ends." "How?" Jian Mo looked at Gu CI seriously, "call your eldest sister, I think... I''ve set my position." Gu CI looked at Jian Mo for a while and finally nodded. Although he still had ideas about Jian Mo, he held back in the end. "Beichen is in Yunze''s office..." Gu CI said estranged. "Elder sister, I''ll go first." Jane Mo didn''t stay much, so she turned and left the ward. However, the talent came to the door and stopped, "eldest sister, the little nurse is very good... Zixiao is in such a situation now. It may not be good for him to change people frequently." "You don''t have to worry about it." Gu CI said coldly. Jian Mo looked at Gu Ci''s angry face, didn''t say anything, turned and left... It seems that Li Yunze didn''t agree to change nurses. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen is discussing with Li Yunze about the residual drugs in Jian Mo''s body. Before saying a few words, Xiao Jing called. "Chen Shao, Xiao Nan came. The news said that the ink palace began to flow goods." Xiao Jing''s voice was dignified, "but only five..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "and then?" A cold voice came, and Xiao Jing said heavily, "I think it''s a trap." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed gradually, and the ink pupil shot out and burst out two cold lights Shi Shaoqin is not giving up? Give up Mo''er and force him from other places? "No matter, don''t ask, don''t care..." Gu Beichen said faintly, "let Xiao Nan stop asking." The identity of boss long is embarrassing. It''s always bad to participate in the affairs of Mo palace too much... What''s more, he didn''t touch that in those years, and now he won''t touch it! After hanging up the phone, Gu Beichen''s cold face was slightly strained. Li Yunze glanced at him and knew that he remembered what happened in the Mo palace "Don''t think so much..." Li Yunze said, "you could survive at first, but now you can''t be afraid." Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze with cold and deep eyes. At the right time, Jane Mo''s hand, which was about to knock on the door, stopped... The words floating out of the gap in the door made her hold her breath. "In fact, when you were kidnapped..." Chapter 608 "Miss Jane, why don''t you go in?" When the head nurse passed by, she saw Jian Mo standing at the door and asked with a smile. Jane Mo''s heart suddenly startled and turned to the head nurse... It was like being caught doing something wrong. She pulled the corners of her mouth with a guilty conscience and was a little embarrassed In the office, Gu Beichen and Li Yunze looked at each other, and their eyes were deep in varying degrees... They didn''t expect that Jian Mo would come down so soon! Jane Mo and the head nurse nodded and pushed the door into the office After she looked at Li Yunze, her eyes fell on Gu Beichen, and she didn''t hide anything. She wants to know what happened in those years, curious, just because she loves him and wants to face everything he has. Jian Mo also knows that Gu Beichen should know that she wants to know about his kidnapping "We''ll have dinner later." Li Yunze broke the slightly awkward atmosphere and stood up, "I''ll change my clothes." Gu Beichen nodded slightly and watched Li Yunze go out. Then he motioned to Jian Mo to glance at the chair beside him. Jian Mo walked over and looked at Gu Beichen. He didn''t know what to say... He didn''t speak, so he looked at her. Her hair was straight in her heart. "I just want to know your past," Jane Mo drooped her eyes. "Ah Chen, I know that you don''t want to mention that past, so I..." "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen interrupted Jian Mo''s words, took her hand and gently rubbed her thick finger belly, "I''ll tell you when the child is born, okay?" Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen... There was doubt in the bottom of her eyes. Gu Beichen scratched his lip, "because the child doesn''t know what''s going on and what pressure you''re under, I know..." he paused and said, "I don''t know how much pressure that past can have on you, but I don''t want to know when you''re pregnant, okay?" Jane Mo didn''t speak, but looked at Gu Beichen tightly "After the baby is born, what do you want to know, I''ll tell you..." Gu Beichen''s voice is low and full of reassuring magnetism, "there''s nothing you can''t tell you." "Husband..." Jane Mo shouted, and her nose became sour immediately. "Am I too curious?" Gu Beichen looked at the dense mist at the bottom of her eyes, but his smile deepened, "because you love me, don''t you?" He knows Jane mo. although curiosity is human nature, she will not always be curious about irrelevant people or things "You start brainwashing mode again..." Jane Mo snorted. Gu Beichen smiled and understood that Jian Mo had promised. Blossom & TB western restaurant. The soft piano music echoed in the air, which should soothe people''s nerves... However, Jian Mo felt like on pins and needles. "Yunze knows?" Jane Mo slightly deviated and whispered to Gu Beichen, who was beside her, but looked at another place. He Yining, who was talking with a man, was very happy. Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze''s gloomy face and said indifferently, "don''t you know by looking at the face opposite?" Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. "I don''t know. I thought you deliberately chose to eat here?" Gu Beichen looked innocently at Jian Mo, "this is the third sister''s place, not afraid of being harassed..." "Really?" Light eh, with a cold and fierce voice overflowing, Li Yunze has taken back his sight on he Yining and glared at Gu Beichen, "you are really a brother." "It''s easy to say..." Gu Beichen was still indifferent. He picked up the red wine glass and sipped, "I''ll give you a chance... I heard that the two get along well." "Why would she rather not be three or four than take my daughter!" Li Yunze''s words fell. He got up angrily and walked to why Ning. "Ah Chen, can''t something happen?" Jane Mo is a little worried. Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep and said slowly, "who knows?" Jane Mo glanced at Gu Beichen and was puzzled. "They......" Gu Beichen sighed, "someone has to take this step first!" Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth. Although she didn''t have much contact with he Yining, she always felt that he Yining was a deep woman. Just thinking about it, I don''t know what Li Yunze said to he Yining, so I saw her suddenly get up and throw Li Yunze''s face with the water cup "Er..." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and looked worried. Gu Beichen also frowned slightly, "Yunze will lose his reason only when he Yining is faced." "That''s because I care..." Jane Mo glanced. "What happened between them?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and said, "you can''t worry about your own things, but also worry about others? Eat first!" "They are confronting each other over there. We eat by ourselves. It''s a little unkind..." Jane Mo said, but she had begun to eat. "Friends are used to pit!" Gu Beichen naturally said that, but he looked at Li Yunze and was worried at the bottom of his eyes. He Yining has been in close contact with that man recently. No matter whether Yunze doesn''t let go, they both have a thorn in their hearts and always have to pull it out It''s another question whether we can be together, but he can''t bear to go the opposite without trying. Have not experienced feelings, can not experience the gains and losses of love "Well, let''s go!" Jane Mo suddenly gave a soft cry. Gu Beichen looked... He Yining was pulled by Li Yunze and walked out of the restaurant regardless. "Tut Tut, overbearing!" Jane Mo has the same envious cremation at the bottom of her eyes. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, as if dissatisfied with the envy of Jian mo. Jian Mo didn''t notice the emotional changes of the people around him at all. She looked at Gu Beichen and asked, "what would you do if I came out like this?" Jane Mo is really curious. Li Yunze is direct and overbearing. Why should he be better if he pulls away? What about Gu Beichen? "I don''t usually do such a stupid thing..." Gu Beichen said. Jane Mo bit her teeth and was dissatisfied with Gu Beichen''s response! Gu Beichen gently shook the wine glass, and the eagle''s eyes gradually became deep. He gently opened his thin lips and said slowly, "I will only make that man busy in all aspects of family, work... And have no time to talk about love with you!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and held it for a long time before squeezing out a few words from her teeth, "what you said is... Really euphemistic!" What do you mean busy without time? In Los Angeles, it''s too simple for emperor group to survive alone. Jane Mo is dissatisfied with Gu Beichen''s answer on her face, but she is sweet in her heart... She likes this man to work hard for her. The chewing movement stopped slightly, and Jane Mo''s heart was a little heavy She doesn''t mention Shao Shi, nor does ah Chen! Strange to say, he hasn''t contacted her since he called her that day The pleasant ring of the mobile phone suddenly rang, and Jane Mo was suddenly startled. Her breathing instinct was chaotic... Won''t you think of anything? Chapter 609 "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, looking at Jane Mo''s gradually changing face, some worried. "No... nothing." Jane Mo said subconsciously, put down her fork and took out her mobile phone from her bag. Because it''s a new number, she hasn''t told anyone the number... Ah Chen is beside her. Who''s calling? With consideration, Jane Mo looked at the call Strange number! Jane Mo''s hand gradually clenched up. She instinctively resisted and didn''t want to take it. Gu Beichen saw that Jian Mo''s face was getting more and more wrong. He attached himself to see who called "Xiao Jing?" Gu Beichen had an accident. "Xiao Jing?" Jian Mo''s heart "brush" fell to the end and stared at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen touched his pocket, "the mobile phone is estimated to have landed in the car..." "Oh!" Jane Mo breathed a sigh of relief and handed her mobile phone to Gu Beichen. At the right time, the bell had broken, and Gu Beichen simply dialed back "Chen Shao, the court issued a summons..." Xiao Jing said in a slightly heavy voice. Gu Beichen frowned lightly, "what do you mean?" "It was sent by the community legal volunteers..." Xiao Jing said heavily, "about the things by Yujing Lake in those years." Needless to say, Gu Beichen already knows something Although Mo''er didn''t mention it and seemed to have forgotten something, he knew very well that she didn''t mention some things, just trusted him, but it didn''t mean she didn''t mind. When Jane Zhanfeng died, the final responsibility really lay with his mother... He always had to explain to Mo''er! "This matter... Will be solved sooner or later." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil gradually became deep, "isn''t it?" Xiao Jing sighed, "I''ll arrange it." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered and hung up. "If you want to be busy, go and be busy..." Jane Mo said thoughtfully, "I''ll go back to the villa directly later." Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo with deep eyes and shook his head with a smile. "The government wants to build an opera house, and the emperor has won the project..." he looked at Jian Mo''s eyes and thin lips. "Do you want to please me?" "Is it OK to please?" Jane Mo''s voice was a little excited. If Gu Beichen is the person she loves most in her life, what she can''t give up is architectural design. "How do you know if you don''t try?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo glanced. "You won''t wait for me to please. Do you think it''s my duty to be a wife?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips lifted up, and his smile immediately spread over Junyan and reached the bottom of his eyes, "becoming smarter..." "It''s necessary..." said Jian Mo, with a flattering look on her face. "Husband... You see, I''m fine now, and you have to accompany me! But if I participate in the project, I can go to work and work with you... Do you think it''s great? Besides, I can show my love..." Gu Beichen''s eyes became deeper and deeper. Looking at Jian Mo, his smile became evil. "It sounds like... I''ve taken advantage of it." "Yes!" Jane Mo nodded hurriedly, "so, how perfect it is for me to participate... The most important thing is that I don''t want salary!" Gu Beichen twitched at the corner of his mouth, "I want to remind you that it seems that you are the largest shareholder of the emperor, and my salary is also paid by you." Jane Mo was stunned at first, then raised her chin, "I forgot if you don''t say... Where do I need to please you?" She looked proud and charming, "I want to participate, I can decide by myself..." After that, she began to eat in a good mood. She didn''t find that Gu Beichen''s evil charm in the corner of his mouth was a deep smile. Find something to do for Mo''er. She can think less. As for what happened later... It''s not something she should worry about right now. ¡­¡­ The Mo palace castle is gloomy in the gloomy weather. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window with the curtain pulled On the European style big bed behind him, Shi juechi was lying pale. Because of the pain, his lips had dried up and white skin. The sound of "um" came, and suddenly, Shi Juxi''s forehead overflowed with a fine cold sweat. Shi Shaoqin closed his eyes, turned around, looked at Shi juechi who woke up because of pain, and said gnashing his teeth: "juechi, if you dare not survive, do you believe it... I will send someone to catch Jian Mo now?" The cold voice was absolutely cruel. It was not a threat. Shi Shaoqin could do it. Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin weakly, and his eyelids were even weaker. He wanted to open it, but he just opened a gap, "Shaoqin..." Just shouting a name, he had begun to breathe heavily. The pressure of his heart made him feel like something being pressed and couldn''t move. In fact... Even if it''s not this time, how long can he live? He doesn''t know Shi Shaoqin looked at Shi juechi, closed his eyes, gritted his teeth and said, "is it worth it for them?" Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin sadly and moved his lips, but he couldn''t make a sound. Even though he thinks Gu Beichen and Jian Mo are innocent... But in the end, he is not for them, but for Shaoqin! Shi Shaoqin opened his eyes. His narrow eyes looked at Shi juechi sharply and didn''t speak anymore The two brothers looked at each other like this, one angry and the other sad... But neither of them gave way. "Dong Dong!" The sound of knocking on the door interrupted the solemnity of the confrontation between the two people. Mosen came in, looked at Shi Shaoqin and said, "Qin Shao, there''s news from the Chen family." Shi Shaoqin glanced at Mosen and then looked at Shi juechi. Without saying anything, he turned and walked out Shi juechi weakly turned his eyes and closed his eyes after the door was closed. After a while, the door was opened again. It was the medical staff After systematically checking Shi Juxi, they all looked dignified. Shi juechi didn''t care about them and let them check until peace returned to the bedroom at last "Never less!" Shi juechi weakly opened his eyes and looked at Xiao Siyue standing by the bed. The corners of his mouth pulled hard. Xiao Siyue reddened her eyes and said in a choked voice, "you can''t hold on. How can you save people?" Shi juechi weakly fanned his eyes and answered her Shaoqin won''t let him die like this. The worst result must be a desperate heart exchange operation... How long can it last! ¡­¡­ Jane Mo is in a good mood. She doesn''t like to indulge in sadness too much Although you can''t do it without thinking about it, you can''t drill a bull''s horn. Besides, it''s a pleasure for her to directly participate in the design of the opera house from the emperor. Shang Junhao is having a meeting. "A designer will join us later. I hope you can cooperate wholeheartedly." Everyone was surprised. "Dong Dong!" After the knock came, the Secretary opened the door, "director, here we are." "Let me in..." Shang Junhao said. All the people''s eyes fell on the door and saw Jian Mo dressed in ol and walked in calmly and confidently Shen Chu smiled coldly at the corners of his mouth and looked at Jian Mo togethe Chapter 610 The opera house is a key project of the government. The emperor decided to let JK participate, which is the first step to completely realize annexation and integration... All who can enter the conference room are involved in this design. Everyone was not so surprised after seeing Jane Morse Yes, the media''s non-stop reports have washed everyone''s eyes for several days. First, the strange "Resurrection" or in the form of peach news. Then, Gu Beichen''s complete trust, coupled with the caring care and protection of her husband... Jian Mo can be said to be even more popular than international stars in Los Angeles. However, these things can not hide her ability in architectural design. Even if everyone has any thoughts in mind, they subconsciously agree with her "Jian Mo will directly enter group B," Shang Junhao looked at Shen Chu, "as group leader of group B!" Several people who participated in JK looked at Shen Chu one after another, with different thoughts... Some watched good plays and some took it for granted. Shen Chu held the pen in his hand and said nothing. Jane Mo answered generously, "OK!" "Then the meeting..." Shang Junhao said and motioned for Jian mo. Jane Mo went to the empty seat and sat down. She didn''t care about Shen Chu''s rejection and hostility. In the conference room, Shang Junhao issued the main idea of the design and the overall direction of the design... Starting with the internal competition between the two groups, and finally aiming at integration. "Everyone understands?" Shang Junhao looked around and saw everyone nodding one after another. He just got up and said, "break up!" After Shang Junhao left, group a leader Li Tianyu looked at Jian Mo and touched his hand: "I won''t be merciful..." Jane Mo smiled and shook her hand politely. "That''s what I want to say." Li Tianyu leaned forward and asked, "will the president participate?" "..." Jian Mo was stunned at first, then understood his meaning, smiled cunningly and raised his eyebrows, "who knows? After all, he is my unique resource!" "Also..." Li Tianyu shrugged and sighed, "it seems that I have to work harder." Jane Mo tilted her head and smiled. On her beautiful face, she was completely confident and full of confidence. "Come on together!" Li Tianyu nodded and left the meeting room first Then people left again and again, although... Everyone thought that Li Tianyu would be angry when he mentioned that Jian Mo might ask Gu Beichen for help, but the result was that both of them were joking. "Go and have a cup of coffee?" Jian Mo turned and looked at Shen Chu. Shen Chu frowned slightly and sneered, "OK!" Jane Mo and the rest of group B said, "leave your contact information at the front desk and I''ll inform you when the meeting will be held." Then she looked at Shen Chu and left the conference room first. Jian Mo and Shen Chu didn''t go outside either. Instead, they went directly to the restaurant and asked for two cups of coffee to sit by the window "Say what you want to say!" Shen Chu''s face was cold. "I know what''s on your mind..." Jian Mo said bluntly, "if I don''t show up, the leader of group B must be you." "Isn''t it?" Shen Chu sneered with disdain on his face, "Jian Mo, in the end, aren''t you a man? Don''t you think it''s funny what you said to me before?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and took a sip of coffee. "You''re wrong..." she put down her coffee cup. "Just like what she just told group leader Li, ah Chen is just my resource. I don''t need to rely on him..." "No, you can get into this project?" Shen Chu gritted his teeth. She works hard to make up for what she lost. What else does Jane Mo want? "Rely on ability!" Jian Mo said confidently, "don''t say that the projects I completed before are those you haven''t surpassed now, and I''m not worse than you in our own starting point." It''s also from UCL, and it''s also Professor Albert''s student... Isn''t it? In a word, Shen Chu couldn''t refute it. "But these conditions are not enough to offset the direct benefits brought by Beichen''s wife." After holding for a long time, Shen Chu finally spoke out his subconscious jealousy and resentment. Jane Mo smiled calmly, "indeed..." she raised her eyebrows suspiciously, "but I can''t divorce him because I want to prove myself?" Shen Chu suddenly felt that he punched in the cotton. He used his strength, but he didn''t see the effect. "You can''t get rid of Beichen by biting your teeth..." just like Li tianchu. Jane Mo suddenly smiled, "you seem to be quite happy..." then she smiled and said coldly, "don''t forget that you are in my group now. My team leader has been questioned like this. Don''t you think the problem is mainly due to the problems of my team members?" "..." Shen Chu was stunned. Jian Mo sneered, "Shen Chu, sometimes I really don''t know whether you are stupid or something..." Shen Chu gradually tightened his hand holding the coffee cup. He had the impulse to pour coffee directly on Jian Mo''s face in the next second. "Don''t forget, we are in the same boat now..." Jane Mo''s face became serious. "I don''t care what prejudice and hostility you have towards me, it doesn''t matter... Because I don''t care at all." Shen Chu tried to breathe deeply, suppressing the impulse in his body. "If you want others to see your ability from the different sunshine, you only have the ability to speak..." Jian Mo slowly said, "I don''t like losing. If I have to use ah Chen in the end, I will consider..." Shen Chu frowned. "If you want Li Tianyu to be convinced of group B, there seems to be no other way, isn''t it?" After Jane Mo made a noise, she smiled, got up, didn''t take care of Shen Chu, and left the restaurant. Shen Chu drooped his shoulders and eyes Even if she doesn''t want to, Jane Mo is right... If she wants to win, she can only put aside her prejudice and hostility and put all her mind on design. Jane Mo can ignore Beichen''s help, but what about her? She has no chance ¡­¡­ After Jane Mo left the restaurant, she went to the top floor. When Gu Beichen saw her coming back, he held her directly in his lap. Jun''s face was buried in her neck and sniffed her body fragrance. "Susan said... Did you talk to Shen Chu?" "Yes!" Jian Mo was tickled by Gu Beichen and pushed him away. Gu Beichen looked at her deeply and asked, "isn''t she happy to find you?" "How possible?" Jane Mo slightly picked her chin proudly, "I''m not stupid!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised lightly, "ask her to talk about the next work?" "Why not..." Jane Mo suddenly smiled flatteringly, "... Tell me first, why did you put me in group B?" Chapter 611 Gu Beichen''s ink pupil gradually became deeper and deeper. He looked at Jian Mo, and the smile at the corners of his mouth became evil "Or..." Jane Mo looked calm, "... Can you tell me, what''s your plot?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "conspiracy?" "Yes, conspiracy!" Jian Mo nodded, "Gu Beichen, you let me enter this project with intention." Gu Beichen smiled, "tell me..." "Although an opera house is a key project, the emperor''s design department can handle it..." Jian Mo calmly analyzed, "let JK participate in it, as if it is a formality, so that we don''t forget that the emperor has a controlling stake in JK." Gu Beichen nodded, "continue..." "But holding is only holding after all, and it can''t completely achieve overall control." Jian Mo raised her eyebrows and her eyes were full of light under self-confidence. "You take this opportunity and add me to increase the odds of winning group B as the beginning, and begin to pave the way for the full acquisition of JK..." "You can win if you join?" Gu Beichen said, "I''m really confident." "This confidence is necessary..." Jian Mo raised her eyebrows. "Of course, I don''t mean I will win, but as a designer, I don''t have confidence in myself. How much expectation can the work give?" Gu Beichen nodded approvingly. "Besides..." Jane Mo smiled falsely, "don''t change the topic." Gu Beichen sighed and pinched Jian Mo''s cheek. His eyes and actions were full of doting, "you know my heart..." As soon as Jian Mo heard this, she immediately smiled happily and pecked at Gu Beichen at the corner of his mouth, "so, I must let Shen Chu put down his hostility to me first... Otherwise, I really don''t know if I can lead JK people to win the emperor!" "Don''t you have me?" Gu Beichen said seriously, "I''m your unique resource..." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "it''s a bad problem to make a small report. It''s easy to rectify... HMM..." Jane Mo''s angry words haven''t spoken yet, and her mouth has been sealed by Gu Beichen. In the burning and overbearing kiss, there was the sweetness of spoiling and drowning. In a few seconds... Jian Mo was paralyzed in Gu Beichen''s arms. When the knock came, Jian Mo hurried to push Gu Beichen. However, Gu Beichen didn''t care at all. Instead, he hugged Jane Mo more tightly and kissed her fiercely Jane Mo pushed it several times and didn''t push it away. She stared at Gu Beichen angrily. But not only did he not intend to let go, but his big hand began to reach into Jian Mo''s clothes recklessly Outside the office, Xiao Jing frowned and rubbed his nose There was a voice behind him. He looked back and saw Susan coming with the information. "Young lady, come up?" Xiao Jing asked. Susan nodded. "Yeah." She looked at the door. "Why don''t you go in?" Xiao Jing pulled a corner of his mouth, "just about to go in... You''re coming. Let''s go together." Susan didn''t think much. She felt her hand and wanted to open the door Xiao Jing''s eyes flashed a cunning light. When he was excited to wait for the next moment, he saw Susan suddenly give him a hand and look at him Unfortunately, the excitement and expectation on his face have not stopped. "I''m not stupid..." Susan looked at Xiao Jing with a mocking face. "Want to pit me?" "Hey, hey, how could it be?" Xiao Jing said solemnly, "besides, what am I doing to you?" "You know what you want to do to me..." Susan glared at Xiao Jing, held the information and turned back to run the company. Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth, left his mouth and went back to his office angrily In the office, the temperature is rising, and the air conditioner can''t resist it. Jane Mo was worried at first, but then she thought... She hasn''t been ashamed before. Now she''s still flirting with wool? On such a thought, she simply let go But as soon as Jane Mo let go, Gu Beichen couldn''t control it completely. Originally, it was because looking at her chattering mouth, I couldn''t help but want to kiss Then there was a knock on the door. Seeing her nervous, I wanted to tease her. But Jane Mo took the initiative, and he endured that it would not be him It''s just that the two are in love in the office, which makes Susan and Xiao Jing suffer. One is to calmly dismiss all the executives who come up to the president to deal with things, and the other is to discuss with Gu Beichen on urgent matters. "Hey..." Xiao Jing shook his head and sighed, "this Jian Mo will come to the emperor to work recently. How do I think... In the next days, Chen Shao''s work efficiency will be greatly reduced?" Xiao Jing turned his chair and looked out of the window The blue sky is as washed, the sun is dazzling but full of energy... If you can keep relaxing like this, how good! ¡­¡­ Under the row upon row of high-rise buildings in a bright city, there are always poor caves and rotten alleys with great contrast. In the tube shaped building, mice scurry around, completely afraid of people and lazy cats at the door. Jane truss''s clothes were pulled on her, and her face was decadent and waxy yellow, almost like a beggar. He squatted on the ground, pulled a box from the bottom of the bed and turned it inside His eyes turned red and he sniffed. Just when his body began to twitch, he turned out a used needle tube. Looking at the only medicine left in it, his eyes suddenly lit up... There was no disinfection procedure, and he directly pierced the needle into his arm "Hmm..." Jane truss closed her eyes comfortably and sat on the ground, leaning against the wooden bed, enjoying the moment. After a while, he pulled out the needle, regardless of the blood, gasped, looked at the completely empty needle tube, and the blood filled eyes overflowed with complex greed. Jian Heng grabbed the newspaper and left it aside. On the front page, Gu Beichen''s photo of tying Jian Mo''s shoes occupied almost half of the page. Hands, gradually clenched up. Jane truss sniffed, sneered and crumpled the newspaper into a ball. "I feel bad, and you can''t expect to feel better..." Jian Heng''s eyes overflowed with malice, and there was no trace of humanity at all. He got up, turned out a few coins from the clothes he had thrown, then pulled a flip flop and went out of the door. At the door, a lazy cat curled up sleeping. He kicked it away... And heard a sharp meow. Jane truss went downstairs and there was a coin operated telephone under it. He picked it up, took out a piece of paper almost crumpled into a ball from his head, unfolded it, stuffed coins into it, and dialed it according to the number on it The phone quickly answered, "I''m Jian Heng." The other party seemed not surprised that he would call, "ask for goods?" "Yes, pure!" Jane truss sniffed and said. The other party was silent at first, and then asked, "have you decided to do it for me?" Jian Chang''s face was grim, "yes..." Chapter 612 "The following is a piece of news about the government''s investment in the construction of the Opera House..." on TV, the anchor broadcast the latest news. "The project office has signed an agreement of intent with the emperor. The urban construction of the opera house, from design to construction, will be completed by the emperor." "According to the latest news, the design of the opera house will be completed by the imperial design department and JK design department. Whether to complete it jointly or select the best... I don''t know!" "Our reporter just got the news that this design... Jian Mo will participate!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± It is no surprise to the outside world that such a large project as the opera house will fall into the emperor. However, when Jian Mo''s name appeared in public again, people sighed Some say that Jane Mo depends on her relationship. Others say that no matter how skilled she is, it''s better to marry a good husband... In short, she can say anything. Moreover, once a person becomes famous, the people will magnify all their shortcomings, as if they can''t see her own value. However, these Jane Mo who has experienced so many things are not bothered at all When Yu Ziyun received the call from Jian Mo, there was an accident. "This time, I participated in the design of the Opera House privately..." Jane Mo explained. Yu Ziyun smiled, "you don''t need me to explain this to you?" "I still have a contract with Xiangyu," Jian Mo sighed. "Although many things have happened, I''m afraid I can''t go back to Xiangyu in the near future, but I didn''t inform you in advance." Yu Ziyun is a person who has experienced years. There are some things that need not be said too clearly In fact, he really likes Jane mo. Being serious and capable, the most important thing is that as long as you treat each other sincerely, she will not betray... Such a person is too rare now. "President Gu has already informed me..." Yu Ziyun said with a smile. "As compensation, Xiangyu gets priority projects from the Emperor... Can I say, am I the winner?" Jian Mo was surprised that Gu Beichen had said it. He had a sweet meaning in his heart and joked, "it''s just priority. Xiangyu has the ability, isn''t it?" Yu Ziyun smiled and didn''t say much about it. "Everyone misses you very much. It''s convenient to come back and have a look." "OK..." Jane Mo''s nose is a little sour. After all, the most difficult times were spent in Xiangyu... She missed them. However, in the following days, there was not much time for Jane Mo to miss. The emperor specially set up an office area for group B personnel of Jian mo... No matter what attitude you have towards Jian Mo at the beginning, you can gradually accept and recognize her professional knowledge and design concept with contact. Due to pregnancy, Gu Beichen worried that Jian Mo was too tired and would limit her working time most of the time And he, the cold president in everyone''s eyes from the beginning, gradually became a gentle husband! Jane Morse didn''t mind Gu Beichen participating in their group B design meeting, but she never gave directions or pointed out how to correct them. Some people guess that Gu Beichen is interested in the design of group B... whether it''s because Jian Mo has a good direction or because beauty is in his lover''s eyes. But people who really know Gu Beichen''s temper know that even if he can release water at work, it is also an appropriate time... He will never have no principles because the other party is Jian mo. After all, it''s not about the two of them Time, spend it slowly in the busy. Busy, can always enrich... Or forget something. In the twinkling of an eye, more than a month has passed. Jian Mo is either stuck in the design of the opera house all day, or has a little sweet time with Gu Beichen It''s as if everything has settled. "Ah..." Jane Mo stretched her waist, and her swollen abdomen was obvious. "Everyone has worked hard!" "The team leader worked hard!" The members of the group smiled and looked at the final rendering of their group. They were excited at the bottom of their eyes. Shen Chu turned his pen and glanced at Jian Mo''s belly. There was no excitement from other team members, but there was unspeakable complexity in the bottom of his eyes... It seemed very contradictory. "What do you want to eat? I''ll treat you..." Jian Mo said, gesturing to the people on the side. "Xiao Wang, you can count and order takeout later." Then she looked around, "we will have a final meeting tomorrow, and we will work hard in the evening to see what we have missed." "OK..." the crowd answered. Jane Mo got up, looked at Shen Chu and left the office area without saying anything "Come on, let''s make statistics. What do you eat?" Xiao Wang already took the paper and began to shout, "sister Chu, what do you eat?" Shen Chu raised his eyes and looked at Xiao Wang, "spare ribs rice and vegetable soup!" "OK..." Xiao Wang wrote it down and asked others again. Shen Chu sat where he was and watched everyone order excitedly. Occasionally someone said, "I''m the same as Xiao Chu''s" She worked hard at JK for so long, but everyone always stayed at the level that she was Gu Beichen''s girlfriend and later failed to compete with Jian mo However, for a month here, Jane Mo let them accept her easily! Is it charity? Or look at her poor? Shen Chu got up and went to her office. Her mood was unspeakably complex... She didn''t want to admit or even resist, but she couldn''t help accepting something in her heart. ¡­¡­ "Boss long is back," Gu Beichen cut off the phone. "After the production inspection, let''s go to devil''s kiss." "Well, good!" Jane Mo''s thoughts answered. Gu Beichen looked at what she was drawing with pen and paper and sighed, "isn''t it finalized? What are you still tossing about?" With that, he wanted to pull away Jian Mo''s paper and pen. "Don''t move..." Jane Mo quickly stopped when he was about to stretch out his hand. "It''ll be ready soon." Gu Beichen twisted his eyebrows and looked down... It was a two-dimensional code diagram. The eagle''s eyes gradually became deeper and deeper. Gu Beichen didn''t move. He just waited for Jian Mo to finish painting and planned to sweep with his mobile phone "You can''t read this until it''s finalized tomorrow!" Jian Mo said, pressing the paper under a pile of data on Gu Beichen''s desk. "Not afraid of me peeking?" Gu Beichen can''t laugh or cry. Is this something he can see but can''t get? Jane Mo shook her head. "You won''t..." she got up, "let''s go!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with a relaxed face and knew that she was actually nervous. Today, I''m going to do four-dimensional color Doppler ultrasound... No one knows whether the children will be affected by the drugs. Just, whether it''s him or Mo''er... Is it with expectations? Xiao Jing drove to Huakang hospital and looked in the rearview mirror at the two people in the back seat It looks easy, but it''s not. He doesn''t understand... Why do you have to check it today! Maybe... Chen Shao and Jian Mo have the same idea. It''s useless to escape. What we should face is always to face Chapter 613 Car, stop at Huakang Hospital Xiao Jing looked back at the two men, and his lips moved. "Chen Shao, madam Shao..." he looked at Jian Mo, "the hospital is here." He sighed and got out of the car to open the back door. Jane Mo was nervous, although she didn''t show it on the surface. Gu Beichen has never been nervous, but he can''t show it Jane needs him, and so does the baby! "Let''s go..." Jane Mo picked her eyebrows and covered her nervousness with ease. Gu Beichen''s Distressed heart suddenly tightened, but Junyan didn''t show any performance. He just gently pulled Jane Mo''s hand, gave her a stable look, and then walked to the hospital together The sunlight moving westward through the branches and leaves hit the two people mottled It''s autumn. When the wind blows gently, it''s cool and comfortable. Xiao Jing stood in front of the car and even forgot to close the door. He put his hand on it and watched the two people enter the hospital without taking them back. Grasp the door, tighten it gradually, and then release it. Shi Shaoqin has been away from Los Angeles for almost two months. The road is in a frenzy for the five pieces of goods... And Mo palace just sits and watches. It seems that because of these goods, Shi Shaoqin wants to go back to town But Xiao Jing knows, Gu Beichen knows... The time bomb that hides the danger always exists, and it may detonate at any time when they relax! ¡­¡­ One third of the sunset has been hidden behind the sea level. The ancient castle of Mo palace is rare to be particularly quiet under the red glow. "Chin Shao," Morson stepped forward, "Smith said. If there is no accident, the operation is scheduled for next month!" Shi Shaoqin gently shook the red wine glass in his hand, and the light blue polo shirt set off his beautiful handsome face with extra softness, "next month?" Light eh''s voice showed a trace of indifference. He glanced at Morson and gradually deepened his sight, "there are still more than 20 days from next month, plus next month... That is to say, I may have to wait more than 50 days?" Mosen twitched at the corners of his mouth, lowered his eyes and said, "never less, the current situation is not stable, and next month is also the deadline of the limit... But the specific date is arranged, and there is no way to give an accurate time." Shi Shaoqin slowly raised his hand and sipped the red wine The mellow liquor gradually spread through the taste buds and scratched into the throat... I saw the Adam''s apple roll gently, slowly suffocating. He closed his eyes as if he were suffering something Morson stood still, and the atmosphere didn''t care to breathe. Qin Shao''s patience has reached the limit. For more than a month, almost two months, he has suffered from repeated illness... The most important thing is that even if he can barely accept the operation, he still doesn''t know whether the follow-up situation is good or bad. "How''s Chenhe?" Shi Shaoqin asked as he opened his eyes. Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin, then lowered his eyes and said, "the news just came back from there. They went to Huakang hospital." Shi Shaoqin was silent again. After a while, he narrowed his narrow eyes and said, "how old is Jian Mo''s child?" "This..." Morson grinned secretly, "I can''t find it." Just learned that Jane is pregnant, so silence is invalid for her It''s too late to deal with this matter. There will be few accidents. "Go check..." Shi Shaoqin said faintly, put down his glass, got up and walked slowly to the sea. Most of the sunset has disappeared at the sea level, and the remaining light left is spread on the sea surface, which is like a warm veil over the sea surface Such warmth and harmony, however, is in sharp contrast to the cold and evil that overflows from Shi Shaoqin at the moment. "Jue Chi will buy you time..." Shi Shaoqin gently opened his lips and said to himself, "I''d like to see... Who''s holding this time." The cold words were instantly extinguished on the beach by the surging waves, and the sunset has quickly disappeared behind the sea level... It seems that it was startled by the cold overflow from Shi Shaoqin. ¡­¡­ "Li Shao, Dr. Ge is ready..." the nurse came and said, looking at Jane Mo and smiling, "Miss Jane, please follow me." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen. After seeing that he gave himself a stable look, he nodded with him and left with the nurse Gu Beichen turned and went to the window. The sunset in Los Angeles seemed to be reluctant to give up. It was still hanging on the trees in the west, soft and warm. "I''ve never seen you so nervous..." Li Yunze poured water to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen took over and sighed, "Yunze... Xiaojie, I''m not with Mo''er. She''s responsible for it alone." He looked at Li Yunze. "Now, although I''m by her side, she''s still bearing it silently. Do you understand?" Li Yunze nodded. He didn''t know the existence of one by one before. He really couldn''t feel Gu Beichen''s thoughts But now it''s different! Children... Sometimes it''s a wonderful existence. After drinking water, Gu Beichen sighed, "in fact, I''m afraid..." Li Yunze was surprised to hear him say his hesitation. "I expect the child to be okay, but... I''m afraid it''s okay!" As soon as Gu Beichen''s contradictory words fell, Jianmei was already frowning together. As a good friend, Li Yunze understood what he meant. Li Yunze sighed helplessly, "Xiaojie is not in great danger for the time being. Shi Shaoqin didn''t think about you having children..." he looked at Gu Beichen with worry, "but he knows this child!" It has been more than five months now. After the completion of 4D color Doppler ultrasound today, we can basically see whether the child is affected by drugs If not, what about the next four months or after birth? So a psychopath is in the dark and may stretch out his hand at any time... He understands Beichen''s contradictory psychology. Jane Mo insists on the child so much that she can''t imagine the consequences if something happens to her. In fact, to some extent This child, maybe leaving now is the best! However, as a parent, I have this idea... Not only cruel to my children, but also cruel to myself! In the office, there was silence... Only the occasional sound of drinking water. As time passed, Li Yunze looked at the following table, "it''s estimated that it''s almost done. Go and have a look?" Gu Beichen nodded, put down his water cup and went to the examination room with Li Yunze. Not long after the two arrived, the door of the examination room opened Li Yunze took a look at Gu Beichen, and they had strided forward. Gu Beichen looked at Dr. Ge and opened his mouth, but he didn''t make a sound. Li Yunze asked calmly, "how''s the situation?" Chapter 614 After seeing Li Yunze in his eyes, Dr. Ge looked at Gu Beichen with a smile in his mouth, "the fetus is normal and well developed... There are no symptoms such as deformity or brain dysplasia..." Said, she even had a trace of banter in her eyes, "Chen Shao can rest assured..." It''s the time for Gao to kill his father. Therefore, all species in the world have a side of restraint... This is called, one thing down one thing! Gu Beichen couldn''t react to Dr. GE''s words for a moment. He even had an empty mind at the moment, as if he didn''t know what to react to and think about "Alas!" Li Yunze patted his friend gently and asked with a smile, "what''s your reaction?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, looked at Li Yunze, and then looked at Dr. Ge, "what did you just say?" He asked hesitantly, "I didn''t quite hear you!" Li Yunze smiled and motioned to Dr. Xiage. The obvious smile at the bottom of his eyes was saying... Again, Chen Shao didn''t hear clearly. He couldn''t believe it! "The fetus is very healthy and there is no sign of malformation or brain damage..." Dr. Ge said with a smile. "Although it is not completely sure that there is nothing, more than 90% can be sure that it is well developed!" Gu Beichen smiled. The smile was childish and dull. Jane Mo put on her clothes at the right time and came out. She saw Gu Beichen''s silly smile, and the smile on her face increased For a long time, when she heard the doctor say she was all right, she was almost happy to get up from the examination bed. She didn''t know. Ah Chen was worried with her at a glance, but didn''t want her to have a burden, so she didn''t show it all the time Come forward, Jane Mo doesn''t care if anyone is watching. Her arm passed through Gu Beichen''s waist ring and put her face on his heart Listening to the heartbeat sound of "Dong, Dong, Dong", she pricked her lips, and Jian Mo''s eyes were filled with happy and excited tears, "ah Chen, I can''t wait... I let Dr. Ge see it. It''s a baby boy, and Xiao Jie has a brother!" Before the words were finished, the hot tears in the eyes overflowed, crossed the cheeks and fainted at the corners of the mouth The salty and astringent taste makes Jian Mo particularly happy at this time. She feels Gu Beichen''s heartbeat and the baby''s heartbeat in her stomach. Gu Beichen mechanically hugged Jian Mo, and his excitement and gratitude were even more At this moment, he only felt that this was a gift from God... A gift that could completely make up for all the darkness in his past! Li Yunze''s nose was a little sour. He quickly glanced over his face and took a deep breath before pressing down the pain from his heart. The happier a person is, the more afraid he will lose He''s upset! Dr. Ge and the nurse motioned their eyes and looked at Li Yunze. Li Yunze didn''t disturb the two people holding silently and soundly at this moment, and Dr. Ge went to one side "Li Shao, this is something to pay attention to..." Dr. Ge gave the previously written paper to Li Yunze, "but I heard that you have been studying gynecology recently?" "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth and asked solemnly, "I''m a doctor. Is it strange to study gynecology?" Dr. Ge held back his smile, "no wonder..." but then said, "but how did I hear that someone and Dr. he were in a private academic meeting and lost the theory because of the Department of gynaecology?" "..." Li Yunze immediately stared, pulled the paper in Dr. GE''s hand and said gnashing his teeth, "I specialize in neurosurgery and cardiothoracic and pulmonary department. What''s strange about gynecology?" Dr. Ge felt that he was about to suffocate his internal injury, but he said very seriously: "I will give a speech at the Department of medicine of Luoda on Friday afternoon. If Li Shao is interested, you can listen to it... Well, the content of the speech is that someone lost that day!" She didn''t seem to see Li Yunze change her face, nodded slightly, turned and left with a smile that she couldn''t hold back Jian Mo and Gu Beichen held each other like this and quietly felt the impact of happiness brought by this moment. On the other side, Li Yunze has a black face Complicated surgery can''t help him... But delivery is actually a simple thing. He hasn''t really practiced it! Li Yunze''s depression lasted until devil''s kiss didn''t disappear. Seeing Gu Beichen and Jian Mo''s happy face as if they were soaked in honey, they were even more in a bad mood. Of course, it''s not that he can''t see their happiness, but that compared with him, his recent life is really bad! "It seems that everything is going well..." said the Dragon owl calmly. His men prepared food materials in an orderly manner, "yours!" He put a plate of nutritious food in front of Jianmo, with a blessing smile on his cold lips. "Thank you, brother!" Jian Mo said happily and went to another place with the food, knowing that they had something to say. The Dragon owl looked at Jian Mo''s eyes and gradually became deep "What''s the matter?" Li Yunze looked at the Dragon owl and Jian Mo with a puzzled look on his face. The Dragon owl glanced at him lightly and continued to make food materials. His cold, carved face said indifferently without any expression: "big brother is more resistant to listening than boss long!" "..." Li Yunze was stunned, looked at Gu Beichen, and then laughed, "I shouted after Beichen... Beichen, you lost to your wife." Gu Beichen did look indifferent. "Is it strange to lose to his wife?" "It''s not strange..." Li Yunze felt uncomfortable and naturally made fun of his friends. "After all, you''re a little white face kept." The Dragon owl raised his eyes and looked at Gu Beichen. When he lowered his eyes, the bottom of his eyes was also smiling. "Do you know the five goods of Mo palace?" The Dragon owl spoke indifferently and didn''t wait for Gu Beichen to answer, "now there are seven families that have basically determined the direction, and the Chen family may not be able to enter the top five." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and didn''t speak "Jin Sanjiao has a bad harvest this year, and the market share of the whole Southeast Asia is basically in Mo palace, and the Chen family will not let go..." Long Xiao put two meals in front of Gu Beichen and Li Yunze respectively, and then opened the red wine. "This matter always needs to be solved." The baby''s belly became soft, and Gu looked back at Xiao Mo in an instant. For her, and the children... Many questions can''t be avoided. The Dragon owl''s eyes gradually deepened. "If you want to solve it, you also need to see what kind of opportunity he gives you to solve it." "This is the truth..." Li Yunze sighed deeply, with a soft forehead with a headache. In fact, we all know that the most dangerous thing now is the child in Jane Mo''s belly Chapter 615 Worry is worry, but Gu Beichen and his three people know that some problems can''t be solved if they want to solve them After all, there are always a few Shi Shaoqin in the world who will do anything to control everything. "Recently, I will stay in Los Angeles with Xiao Nan and them," said the Dragon owl. "It''s inconvenient for me to intervene in the rest." "I understand..." Gu Beichen nodded, hesitated, and asked, "aren''t you going back to the dragon''s house?" Li Yunze immediately looked nervously at Gu Beichen, and then looked at the Dragon Owl... Sure enough, his face was a little frozen. Everyone has a secret or bottom line in his heart. The bottom line of the Dragon owl is this problem! "Let''s see again..." the Dragon owl resumed his indifference after an instant of yin and prey. Gu Beichen didn''t continue to ask, and Li Yunze simply turned off the topic "I received a call to the south that day," Li Yunze said with a smile. "There will be a big holiday after the exercise and I will come back." "He has been away for several years, except for the last time he came back to perform the task..." the Dragon owl frowned slightly and looked at Gu Beichen. "Last time you had a car accident, I didn''t ask. Who did it?" "Who else but his second uncle?" Li Yunze looked discontented. The Dragon owl stared at Gu Beichen, didn''t ask any more, and also forked the topic Jane Mo talks to her baby while eating... Prenatal education is very important, which she knew when she was pregnant with Jane Jie. Before, she tried to focus on the design of the opera house and deliberately ignored the possibility that children might have problems Now, knowing that everything is normal, she seems to have accumulated a brain of words and can''t wait to talk to her children. "Brother, I want another one..." Jian Mo looked at the empty plate and looked innocently at the Dragon owl. The three people who were talking looked at Jian Mo, who immediately pulled the corners of his mouth in embarrassment, "I''ll have dinner for two!" Gu Beichen smiled at the corner of his spoiled mouth and saw that the Dragon owl took out a dish, "it''s estimated that you still need..." "Thank you, brother!" Jane foam went to serve happily. Her happy appearance was unspeakable. Gu Beichen slightly narrowed his eyes, and the smile on his thin lips gradually spread beyond Junyan. "I''ve never felt such a sense of happiness, although I''m uneasy... But," he looked at Li Yunze and long Xiao, "it''s really wonderful." Under the moonlight, Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and walked on the road to the mid level villa The moon, which was about to be round, hung on the ink sky and shone brightly on the ground. "It''s almost the Mid Autumn Festival. Why don''t you pick up the milk bag and live there during the holidays?" Jane Mo stroked her belly and asked Gu Beichen with a smile. Gu Beichen nodded. "The first family reunion festival, naturally, can''t be without Xiaojie." "Yes!" Jane Mo looked at the moon in the dark sky with a bright smile. "Ah Chen, I''ve never been so happy tonight... Really!" Gu Beichen held Jian Mo''s hand and clenched it slightly, "me too..." The person around you is eager to be happy In fact, people are easy to be satisfied. As long as she is in your heart and she is happy, you will be happy naturally. The next day, the sun was soft on everything in the world A new day represents a new beginning. After nearly two months of design, the internal comparison of the emperor of the opera house will be carried out today Whether it is JK design department headed by Jian Mo or emperor design department headed by Li Tianyu, it can be said that today, they have made full efforts. "Are you confident?" Shang Junhao drank coffee and looked at Li Tianyu who was making tea. Li Tianyu shrugged, "I''m not worried about JK at all, but it''s really hard to say with Jane foam..." Moreover, in fact, everyone knows the intention of the president this time. Of course they won''t deliberately lose, but it''s hard to say if they want to win. Shang Junhao smiled, patted Li Tianyu on the shoulder, gave him a meaningful look, and turned out of the tea room A. B two groups don''t know. He knows. The design of the winning group will be put into Los Angeles, and the design of the losing group will not be wasted... It will be put into other cities after a little overall modification. It took two months to waste the painstaking design drawings. This is a waste of cost... Not the style of the emperor. The final meeting is going on in the conference room. Everyone can see that Jane Mo is in a particularly good mood today. Even, her whole body is emitting a light of self-confidence It is said that serious people are the most beautiful, not to mention... Jane Mo is a very beautiful person! Gu Beichen didn''t watch the video of comparing the draft in the conference room, but took the QR code in his hand and stared at it "Chen Shao..." Susan frowned and shouted, "Chen Shao?" "Huh?" Gu Beichen stared at Susan. "I''ve just heard something from you," Susan Chen asked Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is getting deeper and deeper, "behind the European and American stock markets, there are EMP securities controlling..." "..." Susan twitched in the corner of her mouth. It was clear that he was distracted when he looked at the QR code and was actually using it two times. "In fact, I can wait for you to scan the QR code first and then continue to report." "But Mo''er said, we can''t sweep it until it''s finalized..." Gu Beichen said with some dissatisfaction. "..." Susan rolled her eyes. "Chen Shao, is it really good for you to be a wife slave?" Gu Beichen thought seriously, and then said with a smile, "it feels good..." "..." Susan was really speechless this time. Talking to a man who fell in love during his marriage was really impossible to communicate. "You continue..." Gu Beichen motioned, put down the QR code and picked up the mobile phone. Susan thought he was going to sweep, but she didn''t In her ear is Susan''s voice. Gu Beichen looks at the time and sends a text message: brother is safe! Jian Jie looked at the text message, and the black pupil suddenly lit up: Daddy, really? Then you should take good care of mommy and brother... Well, add the love that I''m not around! Gu Beichen''s heart was astringent. Although Xiao Jie said this unintentionally, even because of some pity... However, he was guilty and unable to speak: this situation will not last long Shi Shaoqin will not allow one thing to drag on for too long, let alone... The situation of the Chen family has entered a stalemate. "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." Gu Beichen said indifferently. At the right time, Susan also stopped reporting first. Xiao Jing came in. "Chen Shao, the meeting is over." Gu Beichen didn''t ask anything after listening. He just picked up his mobile phone and wanted to scan the QR code "Chen Shao, don''t ask the result?" Xiao Jingtiao eyebrows. Gu Beichen said while sweeping: "the government''s request this time is Mo''er''s strength, Li Tianyu''s request is atmosphere... The result is obvious!" The words fell, and the sound of "drop" came Gu Beichen stared at the mobile phone, waiting for the QR code scanning results Chapter 616 Susan also has her eyes hooked on her cell phone. Although she can''t see anything above from a distance, she is very curious. Xiao Jing glanced at Susan and quietly moved behind Gu Beichen After the mobile phone was refreshed in a circle, a row of words appeared Chen, give the baby a name! Gu Beichen suddenly felt his heart pumping. At that moment, it was like his heart was in shock and couldn''t breathe. "Chen Shao?" Susan''s face changed suddenly. She stared at Gu Beichen''s face, which turned pale at that moment, and widened her eyes. Xiao Jing also noticed it and couldn''t care about anything else. He strode forward to see the message on his mobile phone... But he frowned in an instant. I don''t know why Gu Beichen suddenly looked frightened? "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen in a confused state, "give the baby a name, madam Shao... Is there a problem with this?" It''s not normal to give your baby a name... Or even a very warm thing? Gu Beichen clenched his cell phone and closed his eyes... His face gradually returned to normal, but his closed fundus was already suffocating. Susan is a woman more than Xiao Jingmin What else did Xiao Jing want to ask? Susan hurriedly made a color. He was curious, but he swallowed what he had said. After a while, Gu Beichen calmed down a little. He opened his eyes, and there was some moisture under the red blood. "I always thought I could take care of her mood, but... It turned out that I was the one she took care of!" Xiao Jingzhang couldn''t touch his head, his face was ignorant, and some of his impatience overflowed Susan sighed heavily, looked at Gu Beichen and said, "Chen Shao, Mrs. Shao is very strong, and such strength is enough to support her love for you!" Xiao Jing seemed to understand something at once. He looked at Gu Beichen painfully and complex. "I think work can divert part of her attention..." Gu Beichen mocked himself. "It''s true that Mo''er gave me such an illusion." In the past two months, she seems to have focused all her energy on the design of the Opera House They go out to work together, eat together, get off work together... Occasionally quietly go to see Xiao Jie. The days are moist and warm, without ups and downs, but enrich each other However, she disguised all kinds of emotions towards the child with such satisfaction, so that he was "cheated" by her again. There was a knock on the door. Before the people inside reacted, the door of the office had been pushed open "Ah Chen, ah Chen, I won, and I..." Jane Mo shouted with a smile on her face, but when she saw the three people with different expressions inside, she froze, looked at the three people and frowned, "am I disturbing you..." Then she looked guilty, "well... I''ll go out first, you continue." "Young lady..." Xiao Jing saw Jian Mo retreating and shouted, "we''re finished." Then he and Susan looked at each other, and they hurried out Jane Mo frowned and looked at Susan, who was polite and smiling, and walked out. But Xiao Jing made it clear that there was something on his mind "Don''t tell me," Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen contemptuously while closing the door of the office. "I can win today because my husband is Gu Beichen!" She hummed discontentedly, "this stem has been played several times. It''s not fun!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo deeply and didn''t speak. He just stared at her tightly. Jian Mo felt that there was no strange atmosphere in the office and asked sensitively, "what''s the matter? Has something happened?" Looking at Jian Mo like this, Gu Beichen is heartbroken He thought he knew her, loved her, and even put her in the most important position in his heart. However, he still didn''t see through his wife She used her strength to cover up the sensitivity under her inner vulnerability. He knew it, but he didn''t feel it deeply enough. Got up and walked over Hold Jane Mo gently in her arms and tighten her long arms, but it won''t hurt her abdominal strength. "Mo''er..." "Huh?" Jane Mo had a smile on her face. Now her hair is over her shoulders and she hasn''t done any modeling. She just spreads it straight and smoothly Looking up at Gu Beichen, it seems that there are stars in the black pupil. It''s clear and pitiful... I can''t see that it''s already the mother of two children! Gu Beichen''s eyes on Shang Jian mo were soft but deep. "Xiao Jie, you want him to be intelligent, he......" he looked at Jian Mo''s bulging belly, "I just hope he can enjoy everything you give him in his life as clean as Meiyu." Jian Mo instantly understood that Gu Beichen scanned the QR code "Just ''Yan'', okay?" Gu Beichen asked softly. Jane Mo smiled and nodded, "just decide..." She knows what ah Chen means. This child has experienced so many things during pregnancy. He likes Xiao Yan to be smooth after he is born. She knew and understood his heart. Just like... He saw how much pressure she was actually under yesterday. Although she has always had extravagant hopes, driven by drugs, she actually thinks her children can''t stay. I want a name... Just because she thinks that if a child has come to this world and doesn''t have a name that belongs to him, it''s too poor. Because she always planned for the worst, when she knew that the child was miraculously safe, she had already forgotten the original intention of drawing QR code at that moment. Jane Mo put her cheek on Gu Beichen''s chest and smiled at the corners of her mouth God is often unfair, but he will comfort you occasionally. No matter how many ups and downs, she doesn''t want to complain. As long as the child is safe and sound... Everything can be ignored. "Mo''er, nothing can separate us..." Gu Beichen looked at the front and sighed, "no more!" "Yes!" Jane Mo answered with a smile. Gu Beichen''s thin lips also smiled, "thank you for marrying me!" "Thank me for what?" Jian Mo''s tone was light, "I just married my heart to love..." Upon hearing this, Gu Beichen smiled and sighed softly. He kissed Jian MOFA, "I will cherish it!" "By the way..." Jian Mo pushed Gu Beichen away slightly. "I invite you to dinner in the evening and go to the Los Angeles Hotel!" "Yes!" Gu Beichen smiled and said, spoiling her hair. "I''ll let Xiao Jing locate it." Jian Mo nodded with a smile, stood on tiptoe, and held it in the corner of Gu Beichen''s mouth, "I still have some follow-up questions to be determined by the monk director, I''ll go first..." Then, regardless of Gu Beichen, he pushed away his arms and went out Gu Beichen didn''t stop. He just walked slowly and looked at Jian Mo''s cheerful back. After entering the elevator, he became deep. "Hey, seeing Chen Shao and his wife like this, I also want to fall in love!" Xiao Jing looked at Susan bitterly, "do you have dog food here?" Susan glanced sideways at him. "Dog food can''t save your single dog!" "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corner of his mouth. Chapter 617 Xiao Jing contracted the top floor Garden Restaurant of the Los Angeles hotel. Both groups A and B participated in the design comparison. Gu Beichen, as the family member of Jian Mo and the president of the emperor, naturally participated. At first, everyone was afraid that the president would be restrained After all... Gu Beichen gave everyone the impression that he was cold, domineering, insidious and even cold. But when I saw him, like a changed person, I took good care of Jane mo. Even, it''s better than many married people here for many years, or people with girlfriends. It''s not bad. It''s not one or two o''clock... Everyone''s eyes are about to take off the window. Although Gu Beichen''s gentleness has been seen in the report, he was shocked when he saw it with his own eyes. Li Tianyu twitched at the corners of his mouth and quietly asked Shang Junhao, "director, is this our president?" "You can ask..." Shang Junhao said with a smile. Li Tianyu shook his head and sighed, "hey... It''s really one thing down!" As soon as he spoke, several people in the group laughed. After two months of getting along, the relationship between group A and group B is very harmonious. Although it is a competitive relationship, it is also benign This time, especially JK people feel why the emperor can develop so fast. The working environment determines the work efficiency. A good leader is better than anything for people who work. Originally, some people were controlled by low-level JK from independence to other companies, but now... They hope to merge directly. Being able to work in an environment like emperor is definitely a very comfortable and energetic place. Most people are thinking about their future, but Shen Chu is basically silent. "Sister Chu, the golden Crispy Shrimp here is really delicious..." Xiao Wang put a shrimp on Shen Chu''s plate, suddenly remembered something, and said in some embarrassment, "that... I forgot to use public chopsticks." Shen Chu looked at Xiao Wang, smiled and shook his head. He didn''t mind at all. He directly picked it up and ate it. When Xiao Wang saw this, he was stunned at first, and then muttered, "who said that Chu Jie is arrogant? Isn''t she also very easygoing..." as he said, he looked at Shen Chu and raised his eyebrow, "Chu Jie, you must be the kind of person with cold face and hot heart? So it''s always misunderstood..." Shen Chu looks at Xiao Wang. He has only been in JK for a few months. Because he is young, publicized and good at designing pictures, he will join the group to participate in the design of the opera house this time Boy, I''m not so interested in gossip, so I don''t believe what JK said about her? Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo on the opposite side of the syncline and saw that she secretly wanted to get the hawthorn juice in front of her. She glanced sideways at Gu Beichen, who was talking to Xiao Jing, and frowned slightly. "Don''t move!" Just when Jian Mo''s hand just touched the hawthorn juice, Gu Beichen suddenly opened his mouth without paying attention to her in the whole process. Jane Mo looked at the hawthorn juice that was coming soon and looked sorry Gu Beichen put the apple juice handed over by Susan with a smile in front of Jane Mo, "this is yours!" "I''ll just have a drink..." Jane Mo said in a low voice. "No!" Gu Beichen refused overbearing. Jane Mo bit her teeth, greedily looked at the hawthorn juice, and then retracted her hand with dissatisfaction. I don''t know why. After knowing that the child was all right yesterday, her whole mood relaxed... Maybe it''s because of her pregnant son. She is particularly interested in sour things today. Now I see hawthorn juice and want to drink it That kind of feeling is like the obsession of thinking because you can''t. However, ah Chen said that doctor Ge told him that Hawthorn should be avoided. Jian Mo sighed secretly, picked up the apple juice, drank it and looked at the hawthorn juice... The feeling was that she was drinking apple juice and dreaming that she was drinking hawthorn juice. Looking at her like that, Gu Beichen was distressed and funny... His hand gently stroked Jian Mo''s stomach under her, comforting her with a little warning. One night, everyone was used to the image of Gu Beichen''s good husband and played... Some were bold and dared to tease. After dinner, everyone was unhappy and proposed to go to heaven night. Jane Mo is a pregnant woman. She can''t stay up too late. Everyone makes fun of her. She doesn''t have enough money to understand. "I won''t go either..." Shen Chu said with a smile. "I''ve been working on the design drawings these days. I''ll go home and have a beauty sleep." They asked them to stay for a few words, but they didn''t insist... Finally, in addition to Shang Junhao and Shen Chu, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo didn''t go, and the rest were led by Xiao Jing. "I have something to discuss with Junhao. You wait for me, huh?" Gu Beichen said to Jian mo. Jian Mo nodded with a smile, watched Gu Beichen and monk Junhao go to the other side of the table, and then looked at Shen Chu, "do you mind sitting with me for a while?" She pointed to the swing chair by the fence. Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo suspiciously and nodded. When they walked over, the waiter brought juice and coffee "How are you feeling recently?" Asked Jane mo. "What do you mean?" Shen Chu looked alert. Jane Mo smiled. "I just want to ask you, do you feel full?" Shen Chu frowned slightly, looked at Jian Mo and didn''t speak. "In fact, I know if you don''t tell me..." Jian Mo''s confident face has a maternal light under the night. "Shen Chu, such an environment, such a state of mind... Don''t you think this should be life?" Shen Chu''s face was cold. Subconsciously, she was resisting Jian Mo''s words. "There are colleagues who work together, there are goals to strive for... There are surprises and joy brought by efforts!" Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu with a light smile. "Every day is full and progressive. Isn''t that your original intention when you first learned design?" A rhetorical question completely broke the defense line in Shen Chu''s heart "You like this feeling and you love this way of working. Am I right?" "So what?" Shen chuleng hissed. Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "Your hostility to me comes from your efforts, but you didn''t get what you want... But I got what you want unexpectedly, didn''t I?" To the point, Shen Chu became angry. "In fact, have you ever thought about a question..." Jane Mo asked. "What?" Jane Mo restrained her smile, "we only see our own efforts, and then see the success of others! But every success is not for no reason..." Everyone is trying, but others can''t see it. Because others can only see you standing under the aura at last... But can''t see how much you pay to stand there? Shen Chu is a smart man. She knows everything Jane Mo says, but refuses to admit it. "Shen Chu, it''s always good to get out of the fog now..." Jian Mo smiled from his heart. "No one can erase the past, but you can take it seriously from now on and build your future yourself." Chapter 618 Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo and couldn''t reflect for a long time. I don''t know whether it''s because of the two months together that she saw this woman''s talent in design, or because she worked together to do something She said irresistibly to Jane Mo that there was indeed a change. Although, the hostility is greater! But this woman, on the one hand, let her admire her talent in design, on the other hand, so simply see through her... This feeling is really annoying! However, such a nuisance is commendable! "I know," said Jane Mo, raising her eyebrows, "we can''t be friends." She told the truth, "it''s not just you who don''t want to, I don''t want to!" Shen Chu sneered and drank a cup of coffee. "However, we are good competitors and will be very suitable partners, won''t we?" Jane Mo stretched out her hand, "I think you will work harder with me around you! And I will work hard to press you in order not to let you have a plan!" Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo and didn''t shake hands After a long time, I heard her say, "don''t worry, soon... I''ll surpass you!" Shen Chu said proudly, got up and looked at Jian Mo with a confident smile. Without saying anything, he turned and left Jian Mo angrily withdrew his hand, looked at Shen Chu''s proud back, glanced down his eyes and said, "Xiao Yan, mom pinched off one of your father''s peach blossoms... Did you have a good result?" A proud smile spreads around the corners of the mouth, but it is not contempt I know something about Shen Chu. Maybe she just needs a hand and give her a hand! Jian Mo looked at the back of Shen Chu leaving, just a shadow sweeping her down the stairs Actually, she''s strong, isn''t she? If she is strong at that age, she has no confidence to stand up "Finished?" Gu Beichen came over. Jane Mo frowned. "Should I ask you?" Gu Beichen smiled with deep meaning. Jian Mo immediately reacted and glanced discontentedly, "how do you know I have something to say to Shen Chu?" "Well, women are stingy..." Gu Beichen said deliberately with a smile at the bottom of his eyes. Jane Mo immediately stared, "Gu Beichen!" "Call your husband..." Gu Beichen said, probing his hand. Jian Mo handed over his hand and got up... They went downstairs together and went to the parking lot. On the way back, Jane Mo asked curiously, "how do you know I have something to say to Shen Chu?" "Because you want to completely eliminate the little guilt in my heart..." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian mo. Jane Mo smiled. "I didn''t mean to eavesdrop on your conversation with Xiao Jing." "I know." Gu Beichen smiled, "in fact, it doesn''t matter if it''s intentional." Jane Moshen sighed, gently stroked her abdomen and said sadly, "I didn''t expect that your second uncle had done such a thing..." Gu Beichen''s eyes became familiar, and his thin lips were completely sneering, "does he do less?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen and her lips moved. She didn''t ask anything. He said that Xiaoyan would tell her everything when she spoke. What was she worried about? Always give him time to sort out his emotions and past, don''t you? "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo turned the conversation, "the milk bag gave me information and said he wanted to take a picture of the whole family." As she spoke, she stroked her abdomen with a smile on her face. "Yes." Gu Beichen asked with a smile, "and then?" "When we come back from the Mid Autumn Festival, shall we take a picture of our family?" Jian Mo asked with a smile. Gu Beichen hesitated. Now Shi Shaoqin''s problem has not been solved. He is always worried However, when he saw the expectation on Jane Mo''s face, he had no way to refuse. "Just keep the milk bag..." Jane Mo said hurriedly. "Someone found the milk bag. The family photo is meaningless, isn''t it?" Jian Jie and Gu Beichen look too much alike. If they are really found, there is really nothing wrong with the existence of the family photo. "Xiao Jie is at school alone. We can''t accompany him all the time now. At least let him feel that we are around..." Jane Mo tried to bear her guilt. Gu Beichen explored his hand, shook Jian Mo''s small hand, and gently replied, "OK!" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she immediately took out her mobile phone and sent a text message to Jane Jie: Daddy agreed! Jian Jie just lay in bed ready to sleep. When he saw the information, his small ceramic face was full of smiles He''s not surprised. Daddy''s wife slave, stupid Mommy, can handle it. Jian Jie''s eyes were bent with laughter and his small hands quickly wrote: Mommy, say good night to me and my brother every day! Jane Mo replied: OK! Jane Jie: there will be an English speech tomorrow morning. I''m going to bed. Mommy, good night! Jian Mo looked at the attached photos. Her fingers gently but vanity across the screen. The corners of her mouth were laughing, but her eyes were wet It won''t be long. Their family will be happy and happy together. She will have a home... A complete home! Time is busy. After the opera house was finalized, it was followed by some meetings with the government project office and some running in with the construction. Jian Mo took the lead in the design. Although they cooperated with Shen Chu, they still had to do it by themselves. "Shockproof treatment is needed here..." Jian Mo explained to the construction supervisor with the drawings. Shen Chu is also talking with the person in charge about some matters that must be paid attention to in the design drawing. Each face is serious. "Let''s go inside and talk. It''s a little changed outside..." someone shouted, "Miss Jane is still pregnant. It''s not good to stand like this." Shen Chu came forward, "go in and sit down. It seems that it will be late today." "There''s a good home-made dish nearby," Jian Mo said. "We''ll have it together in the evening." Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo and didn''t speak. Jane Mo rolled her eyes. "Why, dislike?" Shen Chu said, "don''t get too close to me. I won''t be friends with you." Then she proudly led her to the color steel room. Jian Mo glanced. "I just invite my subordinates to dinner and reward them for their hard work... You think too much." "..." Shen Chu stopped and looked back at Jian Mo, a little angry. With a proud face, Jian Mo walked to the color steel room and said when passing Shen Chu: "I''m a pregnant woman. Don''t be angry with me... Or deduct your year-end bonus!" "..." Shen Chu stared and watched Jane Mo enter the room. This woman is the design director! Why do you always talk about her year-end bonus? ¡­¡­ "Jane Mo, they may go to have dinner later," said a man with a duck tongue hat, looking at Jane truss around him. "You can think of a way." Jian long looked at a potion like thing handed over by the man and asked instinctively, "what''s this?" The man glanced at Jian Heng, "what are you fighting now?" As soon as Jian truss heard this, he immediately widened his eyes and asked, "is this a poison?" Chapter 619 The man sneered, "this is not an ordinary poison......" he seemed reluctant, "if it wasn''t for a special period, I really don''t want to take it out..." Jian long looked at the poison in the man''s hand, and his eyes were full of greedy light. "Don''t think about keeping it by yourself," the man saw through Jian Heng at a glance. "If things don''t get done today, I have to beat you up!" Jane truss suddenly gave a thrill and looked at the man in horror. "If things get done..." the man smiled, his eyes completely knowing about drug addicts. "Don''t worry, I promise to provide you with a year''s dose of drugs, I won''t cheat you." The light from the bottom of Jian Heng''s eyes was even worse. He nodded hurriedly without thinking, "don''t worry... What Jane Mo likes, but I know best, and she can''t notice it." The man listened, nodded with satisfaction and gave the "medicine" in his hand to Jane truss. Immediately, the two men went in the opposite direction and were ready to leave However, the two talents turned around and saw the people coming out of the corner in front of them, staring one after another. Xiao Jing looked at Jian Heng with disgust on his face. "Shit, you said that Jian Mo did something immoral in his last life. What did you do to a brother like you in this life?" As soon as he changed the "gentle style" of special assistance in the past, he directly exploded the exit, "lying in the trough, really special... I can''t see any outsiders." Holding the "medicine" in his hand, Jane truss began to step back and hit the back of the man with a duck tongue hat. "What do you want?" Jane truss asked in horror. Xiao Jing sneered, "how''s it going?" After his light eh, he pulled the corners of his mouth and said, "of course I beat you!" When the words fell, a man came out behind him, and another one opposite him. Without saying a word, he came forward and began to beat Jian Heng originally lived in Angola and developed fighting skills. However, because of the tin poison, only those who are weak and weak can be beaten. Xiao Jing looked at the duck tongue hat man and resisted. He calmly took out a cigarette and lit it. In this way, the evil ruffian leaned against the wall and smoked. He looked like watching a good play After about two or three minutes, the man with a duck tongue hat had not won it. Xiao Jing looked at the table below and said discontentedly, "are you practicing your hand? Are you finished?" As soon as the man who fought with the man with a duck tongue hat heard it, he immediately showed a fierce color in his eyes and kicked it on the man''s belly After the sound of "Oh", the man with a duck tongue hat curled up on the ground and his face was ferocious because of the severe pain. Xiao Jing turned his eyes secretly, threw the smoke to the ground, twisted it out with his feet, and came forward with a heavy foot on Jian Chang''s face. When he heard the cry, he said coldly, "I am you, I have no face to live... Hum!" He looked back at the bodyguard and said, "send it to devil''s kiss first..." Then he came forward to pick up the "medicine" that fell on the ground, looked at the code on his eyes, and sneered at the duck tongue hat man, "I''ll use you to do an experiment later to see the purity!" As soon as the man with a duck tongue cap heard it, his painful face immediately overflowed with deathly gray panic. ¡­¡­ Jian Mo, together with Shen Chu and others, finished talking about the details with the construction team. It''s almost seven o''clock... Completely unaware of what happened outside the construction site and in the alley. During the short message, Beichen was tired and asked her to come. From concern to persuasion... To anger, I sent more than a dozen. "Don''t worry, Miss Jane, we will carry out the construction carefully according to your instructions..." the person in charge shook hands with Jane Mo politely. Jane Mo smiled and nodded politely, "if you have something to contact Miss Shen, she is responsible for the next thing." In this government bidding, Emperor real estate did not participate in the construction of the opera house. Although Jian Mo didn''t know why, he didn''t think much Anyway, she is also used to negotiating with the construction department after the design. "OK!" Jane Mo nodded and left the construction site with the team "Well, what I''m talking about is that hot house..." Jane Mo raised her eyebrow. "Can''t anyone eat spicy food?" Shen Chu sneered, "it seems you can''t here." "How can I..." Jane Mo just wanted to refute, suddenly touched her lower abdomen and secretly clenched her teeth, "I can eat non spicy food!" Shen Chu gently pulled down the corners of his mouth, but soon he proudly restrained his smile and walked forward with proud steps. Jane couldn''t stand it. She hummed and motioned for everyone to come together. The people in the group are used to these two people, one can''t stand the other, work hard, and usually talk tit for tat... One by one went to the restaurant with a suppressed smile. After entering the restaurant, Jian Mo sent a text message to Gu Beichen: I''ll go back after dinner. You don''t have to come and pick me up. Shen Chu scalded the tableware with water and glanced sideways at Jian Mo, "let me send you..." Jian morhu smiled, neither promised nor refused, but sent a message to Gu Beichen: Shen Chu said to send me! Gu Beichen''s eyes deepened and replied: give me information when you get home. When Jian Mo replied, he pressed out his cell phone and put it away. In devil''s kiss, music is deafening and smoke is everywhere. First floor, second floor. Closing the door seems to cut off the noisy world outside in an instant. As soon as Chen Xuan opened the door, he saw the man who was tied with his backhand and knelt on the ground. He was probably beaten. He looked at Gu Beichen sitting on the sofa, lazy but cold. "What''s going on?" Chen Xuan said, closing the box door and immediately cut off the noise downstairs. He was still panting because he came in a hurry... Obviously, he was a little shaken. Gu Beichen glanced at him lightly and said faintly, "is this your Chen family?" Although he was asking, he was obviously sure. Chen Xuan frowned and looked at the man trembling and kneeling on the ground. He didn''t speak When the man saw Chen Xuan, his eyes were begging for hope, but when Xiao Jing took out a needle, his whole face instantly turned into horror. Chen Xuan frowned, "Beichen..." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but took out his lighter and cigarette and took a look at Xiao Jing The sound of the steel lighter "Dang" broke the solemn atmosphere. While the smoke was lit... Xiao Jing had pumped the contents of the "medicine" into the needle tube. Chen Xuan immediately changed his face, "Beichen!" Gu Beichen still didn''t speak. Xiao Jing motioned to the next few big men standing aside. Suddenly, those people came forward and held the kneeling man "No... no... don''t..." the man watched Xiao Jing approach step by step in horror, and his eyes were full of fear. "Beichen, do you know what you''re doing?" Chen Xuan is also anxious. Gu Beichen took a smoke and raised his eyes coldly, "this man belongs to your Chen family, and this thing... Is also from your Chen family!" Chen Xuan''s eyes widened, as if he understood something in an instant, "how could it?" Chapter 620 The kneeling man still shouted in horror and wanted to struggle to escape, but he had no ability to resist. He could only stare at Chen Xuan with scarlet eyes and beg "Young master Xuan, save me, save me..." he asked Chen Xuan for help while he walked in in panic step by step. Xiao Jing looked cold, "young master Xuan... Save me..." Chen Xuan looked at the kneeling man and Gu Beichen, who was so cold. He gritted his teeth and said, "did you just let me see this?" "No..." Gu Beichen was lying on the sofa with surging waves. The eagle''s eyes looked slightly up at Chen Xuan. The ink pupil was completely cold. "Let you bring a word to old Chen." Chen Xuan''s eyebrows were tightly wrinkled together, and he already felt something. "Some people can''t be touched!" Gu Beichen gently lifted his thin lips, and his voice was calm as if he said something ordinary. "If you touch it, not only your purpose can''t be achieved, it may... Be counterproductive." Chen Xuan''s heart suddenly shook, and he suddenly stared back at the kneeling man The man had been covered by one man''s noisy mouth, and the other pulled up his sleeve. Xiao Jing deliberately squeezed the needle tube in front of him as if he was killing his heart... He saw that the panic in his eyes had distracted the focus of his pupils. Chen xuanmo promised me that I would not deal with this matter at home Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and took a breath of smoke... Spitting out smoke. The curling smoke dispersed in front of him. Under the dim light, his cold, carved face was like one carved with a knife and axe in hell. "Well..." While he bolted out his voice, Xiao Jing mercilessly pierced the tip of the needle into his skin Chen Xuan looked back and lost his calmness. "Gu Beichen..." he looked at Gu Beichen, who was still indifferent, gritted his teeth and roared, "you are really crazy!" Gu Beichen sat up and attached himself to twist out the cigarette butt gently in the ashtray. He doesn''t smoke now because Mo''er is pregnant... Although he didn''t smoke much before. I don''t know whether he is reluctant to give up. The appropriate atmosphere is too dignified. His action of twisting the cigarette butt is unusually gentle. Chen Xuan''s heart is about to burst... He is the Chen family. What haven''t he seen since he was a child? However, he is such a person that Gu Beichen has a superior life since childhood. He is only forced to be dignified by people in the mall. "She," Gu Beichen put down his overlapping legs and got up. When talking to Chen Xuanping, you said, "it''s my only bottom line!" "Uh... Uh..." The kneeling man, who was injected with a tube of "medicine", turned his eyes and twitched on the ground. Chen Xuan looked at him with a complicated look. From the man''s panic, he knew the purity of this... Such intravenous injection is tantamount to slowly torturing death. It''s impossible to inject Jane Mo, but it''s easy for her to eat it accidentally The efficacy decreases, just like taking ordinary poison! "Beichen, do you know you''re playing with fire now?" Chen Xuan''s face was a little ugly. He was less joking and more worried about Shanggu Beichen''s sight. "What does Xuan Shao worry about?" Xiao Jing played with the needle and looked contemptuously at the man who kept twitching and turning his white eyes on the ground. "We all know who''s here... What''s going on," he smiled at Chen Xuan. "Xuan Shao doesn''t know?" Devil''s kiss is the place of the Dragon owl. He knows. There are a lot of good and bad people here, and there are a lot of transactions on the road... He also knows. Just Gu Beichen walked forward slowly, parallel to Chen Xuan, but facing two directions. "Everyone is interested. Old Chen has helped me a lot before. This time I have given me a lot of face..." Gu Beichen said, slightly leaning his head, facing Chen Xuan who was looking good. "Next time, I won''t give anyone face!" Words fall, he indifferently took a pocket with one hand and raised his feet Someone had opened the door of the box. Suddenly, there was a harsh metal sound outside, which made people panic. "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing followed him out. "Do you want to see Jian Chang?" Gu Beichen slightly narrowed his eyes, "tomorrow!" Xiao Jing was silent and nodded, "I know." "Go and tell boss long," Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone and saw no text message. "I''ll pick her up." "Good!" Xiao Jing answered and watched Gu Beichen go downstairs. Then he looked back at Chen Xuan in the box and turned to go upstairs. When Shen Chu and Jian Mo came out, they saw Gu Beichen''s car on the roadside Shen Chu was astringent in his heart. Some forced the corners of his mouth and looked at Jian Mo proudly: "why, I''m afraid I''ll sell you?" "That''s what you can sell me!" Jian Mo hummed, and then warmly greeted the other team members. He saw Gu Beichen get off the bus, nodded with the crowd and opened the door for her. "Alas, if there is a husband like Chen Shao in this life, he will die without regret!" A leftover woman shook her head. "It turns out that I haven''t married yet because I haven''t met such a man." Shen Chu glanced at her, smiled and went to the parking lot next to the construction site with everyone. "Didn''t you say there was something to do at night?" Jane Mo asked suspiciously. Gu Beichen stopped at the red light intersection, looked at Jian Mo deeply, smiled and said, "I''m afraid Shen Chu sold you and Xiao Yan..." "..." Jian Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and said with some strange yin-yang tones, "just like Shen Chu said... No wonder she was a childhood sweetheart." Gu Beichen shook his head, looked at the countdown number at the red light and said, "it''s really my son..." "Huh?" Jane Mo didn''t react for a moment. Gu Beichen saw the green light and started the car with a faint opening: "sour!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth, stared, and then groaned proudly, "you have the ability... Don''t be sour!" Gu Beichen frowned and glanced at Jian Mo, "what do you mean?" "I won''t tell you!" Jane mordeser smiled, then lowered her eyes and gently stroked her swollen stomach, "Xiao Yan, in the future, you will have to be a country with your mother. Your brother and your father only know how to bully me..." "..." Gu Beichen pulled out from the corner of his mouth, "only Xiaojie is bullying you!" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and saw that he was serious and laughed, "you said, milk bag, will it be a country with China and become a camp for you in the future?" "No!" Jane Mo frowned. "Why?" Gu Beichen looked at her again. "Xiaojie said your IQ would lower her..." "..." Jane Mo was a little angry. "Can you stop talking about my IQ? Where is my IQ low?" Gu Beichen smiled and didn''t explain. He just drove the car and turned into the road to the mid level villa Along the way, warm in the "small noise" across the moonlight. Jane Mo doesn''t know what happened behind her... Gu Beichen naturally won''t let her know! Chapter 621 Jane Mo grows up with her stomach, and some things become inconvenient In the past, when she was pregnant with milk bags alone, she didn''t seem to feel it... But now with Gu Beichen around, she doesn''t know whether she depends on it or not. Anyway, she feels that she can handle it by herself. She will feel that she can''t. "Drink the milk..." Gu Beichen brought the hot milk. "What will you eat tomorrow morning?" Jian Mo asked in Gu Beichen''s arms. Gu Beichen just went to the kitchen and didn''t notice, "I didn''t see it." "I want to eat sun eggs tomorrow morning..." Jane Mo said with a smile. Gu Beichen looked at her smiling face and kissed the milk stain on the corner of her mouth, "I''ll make it for you!" Jane Mo smiled, "really?" "Don''t you just wait for me to take the initiative?" Gu Beichen directly exposed, "fortunately, I learned a few kinds of breakfast." Jane Mo''s heart is sweet. She is a high man. She can do everything and try everything for you... She will also want to indulge in it. For example... I know he works hard, but I still hope he can get up ten minutes earlier and make breakfast for her. Jane Mo thinks it''s a kind of fun. Sometimes you need to be strong, not weak... Sometimes you need to let a man know that you need him. Everything is done by yourself. Why do you want a man? "What do you think?" Gu Beichen saw her smile, and the ink pupil became deep. Jane Mo lay in Gu Beichen''s arms, "think again... How good it is to be in love for a lifetime like this?" Gu Beichen listened, and his heart was soft. I remember the southern love theory is that all love is finally transformed into family affection... Otherwise, we will only respect each other as guests in the end. But he forgot Love can be just love. If you talk about love with Mo''er all your life, you feel happy, don''t you? At night, sleeping with people in love is plain happiness. Jian Mo slept soundly, but Gu Beichen didn''t sleep The purpose of Shi Shaoqin is very simple. The goods of the five families, while the Chen family is on the edge. They can enter or not! Then, for the sake of interests, old Chen''s mind finally regretted moving to Mo''er. From the perspective of the Chen family, there is nothing wrong. And Shi Shaoqin was originally for this purpose If Mo''er is really injected with poison, whether he can quit or not, he is bound to be involved The resistance in those days has now become ridiculous. Jane Mo moved her body slightly, subconsciously protecting her stomach, but moved slightly without turning over too much. Gu Beichen stopped thinking, closed his eyes and kissed Jian Mo on the top of his head Wait until Mo''er gives birth to Xiao Yan For more than three months, bear it! No matter what the consequences are, he must go and solve it with Shi Shaoqin. ¡­¡­ "Qin Shao..." Mosen looked at Shi juechi, who was a little sober, and stopped talking. Shi Shaoqin glanced at Mosen and then at Shi juechi. Without saying anything, he turned and went out of the bedroom. "I found..." Mosen followed Shi Shaoqin to the terrace at the end of the corridor. "Jane Mo is estimated to be pregnant for more than five months and six months." The wind is a little strong at night. Although the lower part of the Mo palace is not particularly cold in late autumn... The air is mixed with sea breeze, and a damp and cold breath passes through the skin. "It seems that the child has nothing to do..." Shi Shaoqin said faintly. Mosen hesitated and nodded. "Look at Jane Mo''s recent state, there should be no problem." Silence can be offset by progesterone hormone, which does not seem to have any impact on the fetus Shi Shaoqin turned and looked at the end of the corridor with cold eyes. "In order to delay the operation next month, Juxi will find a way to make the operation impossible." Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin. "Qin Shao means..." he frowned. "Will it be delayed until Jianmo is produced?" "Maybe..." Shi Shaoqin was not sure. Mosen lowered his eyes. "I''ll pay attention." Shi Shaoqin looked at him and said nothing. He stepped forward and went to Shi juechi''s bedroom again. The wind outside suddenly rose and made a strange sound. Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin weakly. He didn''t say anything and turned his head too far... He didn''t know whether he didn''t want to say or didn''t have the strength to say. He doesn''t know if he can buy time for Mo mo. he can only pray, can''t he? Night, as if waiting will become extra long. However, in the eyes of Jane Mo, who is surrounded by love, she always feels that the dawn is too fast When she woke up, there was no gu Beichen in bed. Her head crashed and she remembered that she wanted to eat the breakfast he made yesterday. With a happy mood, Jane Mo got up and went downstairs after washing. Just in time, Gu Beichen made breakfast It''s still the same as the one just returned to Los Angeles. It''s very simple... Well, it''s mainly because Gu Beichen has no talent for cooking! In fact, the taste is very general, but Jian Mo eats very happily, as if it were the most delicious breakfast Seeing Jian Mo eating happily, Gu Beichen had only one idea... He really should overcome this only shortcoming. "Things in the opera house are almost done. Do you want to do something else next?" Gu Beichen handed the milk to Jian Mo and asked. Jane Mo brightened her eyes and nodded, "I don''t want to be at home or affect your work..." "Xiangyu has received 30% of the interior design of the beginning community to be developed by the emperor. Are you interested?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane was stunned, "Xiangyu?" "Yes!" Jane Mo didn''t even think about it, so she nodded hurriedly, as if she was afraid that Gu Beichen would repent, "yes..." Although she majored in architectural design, she also liked interior design... The most important thing is that the partner is Xiangyu! "Husband, I love you so much..." Jian Mo said softly, kissing Gu Beichen in the air, and then happily continued to eat breakfast. She knows that this arrangement is due to ah Chen''s doting and consideration for her Gu Beichen didn''t ask Xiao Jing to pick him up. He drove Jian Mo to the Emperor himself. Although she spent two months safely, Jian Mo didn''t want Gu Beichen to worry that she would be followed by bodyguards. She didn''t refuse. Generally, she didn''t have to, and she wouldn''t leave his sphere of influence. "I''ll go out later," Gu Beichen turned the car into the emperor''s underground parking lot. "If you can''t come back for lunch at noon, you''ll eat in the staff restaurant, huh?" "OK..." Jane Mo replied, "in fact, I won''t eat with you when you come back." Gu Beichen shook his head. "It''s really bad for a friend to forget his husband." Jane Mo smiled and got out of the car after stopping steadily "You don''t have to send me up..." Jane Mo saw Xiao Jing waiting for another car. Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing and didn''t insist. After seeing Jian Mo into the elevator, Gu Beichen called Susan and explained. At the same time, Gu Beichen walked to the car over there. "Chen Shao." Xiao Jing opened the door. "Go to see Jane truss first..." Gu Beichen said indifferently. Chapter 622 Xiao Jing drove through the bustling main street of Los Angeles Because it is working time, there are a lot of cars and pedestrians on the road, all of which are busy in a hurry. Xiao Jing looked at the long line of traffic and looked at Gu Beichen in the back seat from the rearview mirror... Just one glance, he took back his eyes. "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing asked cautiously, "how do you... Plan to solve Jian Heng?" Gu Beichen originally looked at the line of sight outside and slowly took it back, "know... Still ask?" The gentle tone of voice showed the pressure of pressing people''s hearts. Suddenly, the air in the narrow carriage solidified. Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth and didn''t speak... He just controlled the car and moved slowly with the traffic. As Chen Shao said to himself, Jian Mo is his last bottom line No matter who it is, we can''t cross the bottom line. "Brother Xiao said that he would solve the problems in the Chen family." Xiao Jing said. Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned, "no need..." Xiao Jing looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror. "Chen Shao, it''s better for brother Xiao to do this, isn''t it?" "And then?" Gu Beichen made a sound and looked out of the window again Within sight is a maple leaf that has become orange. There is a conservatory of music here. Maple trees have been planted on both sides of the road for decades. In late autumn... The scenery here is always charming and makes people want to calm the world down. Xiao Jing was in a heavy mood and didn''t answer Yeah, and then? Brother Xiao solved this time, and Shi Shaoqin will have another time In fact, everyone is rejecting the final duel with Shi Shaoqin, but it is clear that... It can''t be avoided. ¡­¡­ When Jian Mo arrived at the imperial design department, many people had come. "Xiaomo''er, there will be a meeting with Xiangyu later, you know?" Li Tianyu came out from the tea room with a cup. Jane Mo rolled her eyes and smiled with warning at the corner of her mouth: "be careful, I''m used to it. I can''t shut up in front of someone next time!" Li Tianyu went to Jian Mo, raised his eyebrows and said with a smile, "I won''t make such a low-level mistake..." Are you kidding? The president is so jealous that he kills him with one look... He wants to live a few more years and earn more milk powder money! "When will they come?" Asked Jane mo. "It seems more than ten o''clock..." Li Tianyu said uncertainly. "I just talked to the director of an elevator. He''s going to the government project office later. Let me let you know." Jane nodded. "Thanks." Li Tianyu smiled and turned to his office area. Jane Mo sat down slowly and forgot to pack her things... An unspeakable feeling in her heart. It seems that something is repressing and exciting... In short, there are two kinds of extreme contradictions. She has unique feelings for Xiangyu, but perhaps because of this, she doesn''t know how to face it. This is why it has been two months since she was "awake". She talked to Yu Ziyun once except for the opera house project, but did not contact anyone in Xiangyu. ¡­¡­ The car was blocked for an hour. Xiao Jingcai drove the car out of the city. When he arrived at the place where Jian truss was closed, it was two hours later "Chen Shao!" Xiao Yu greeted Gu Beichen and looked at Xiao Jing, "second brother?" Xiao Jing gave him a look and didn''t speak. Xiao Yu nodded imperceptibly, "people are inside, almost..." Gu Beichen glanced at Xiao Yu, didn''t speak, and walked forward The door was opened, and the bloody smell coming from the front made people want to vomit. The sudden wind made the curled body twitch on the ground, and Jane truss tried to open her eyes that had been beaten into fish bubble eyes. The goal is a pair of shiny leather shoes, gray and black suit pants... Clean and tidy is completely different from his depression at the moment. "Chen Shao!" The people inside said hello. Xiao Yu stood at the door, picked his chin and motioned. Everyone understood and left one after another. With a bang, the door was closed. In such a large space, it seemed as if you could hear the heartbeat. Gu Beichen casually pulled a chair aside and sat down in front of Jane truss. Xiao Jing is on one side. Born in the dark world, he is indifferent to the blood in the air at the moment. "You, what do you want to do..." Jian Heng was tortured all night and kept silent, which made his whole nerve nervous. Gu Beichen scratched his thin lip coldly, "it''s not too late to be afraid now?" "I''m Jane Mo''s brother. What do you want to do to me?" Jane truss looked at Gu Beichen in horror and moved down on the ground. Gu Beichen''s Mo Tong looked at Jian Heng''s action indifferently. At the moment, he was beyond recognition, and there were blood stains all over his body, "do you know... You are Mo''er''s brother?" There was total contempt in the light voice. Jian Chang''s heart suddenly shook, "I, I won''t... Chen Shao..." he shouted and wanted to go forward to catch Gu Beichen. However, before moving, all his movements stopped. The cold metal touch is at the temple. Jian Chang tilts his head slightly and sees Xiao Jing indifferently holding a gun against him "I, I want to see Xiaomo..." the fear of death made Jian Heng''s voice tremble. "Gu Beichen, you can''t kill me, or... Xiaomo will hate you!" Gu Beichen sneered coldly. Xiao Jing couldn''t stand turning his eyes, holding the butt of the gun and throwing it at his head The strength of this is not small. After listening to Jane truss''s stuffy hum, there are hot and humid things on his head that scald across his skin. "If you disappear in this world, no one will know." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and his eyes fell on his slender fingers. "How can Mo''er know? Not to mention..." he sneered, "for you hate me? Jian Chang, what do you compare with me?" Jian Heng stared at Gu Beichen in horror. After a night of torture, he had become a frightened bird at the moment, "Gu Beichen, killing is against the law!" "Don''t worry..." Xiao Jing wiped the blood on his hands. "You''re not human. How can you break the law if you kill him?" Jian Heng was not in the mood to carry with Xiao Jing at the moment. His instinct for survival made him desperately want to grasp the straw, "even if Xiaomo hates me, once she knows, she will not allow you to do so... I want to see Xiaomo, I want to see her!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at Jian Chang''s face with regret in the bottom of his eyes. But I don''t know whether it''s for Jian Heng or who? In this world, there are two kinds of people without any shame and lower limit... One is a gambler and the other is a drug addict! And Jane truss, both. "I''ve given you two chances, but you don''t cherish it..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil gradually became familiar with it, "Jian truss..." he parked the car and slightly hooked an arc like nothing, "or Gu Heng, as my brother-in-law and cousin, I gave you both opportunities!" Jane Chang suddenly widened her eyes, "you, what do you mean?" Chapter 623 "It means that your ending today can only be death!" Xiao Jing''s indifferent voice came, and then there was the sound of loading That sound fell on Jian Heng''s heart like a talisman... So that he forgot to continue to ask. Jane truss ignored the injury on her upper body and the cold touch when the blood had crossed her neck. He rubbed his body, retreated one after another, and kept shouting "Xiaomo won''t allow you to do this" Gu Beichen just looked at Jane truss and didn''t order Xiao Jing to do it. It seemed that he enjoyed Jane truss at the moment. When he came back from Mexico palace, he began to secretly investigate his kidnapper. Many things, hidden in the tear, are discovered step by step. For example, when Sumer was drugged For example... Jian Chang is really a family child! It''s just Gu mohuai''s! Jane Zhanfeng loves Sumer. After that happened, he jumped out at the first time While calming Sumer''s mood with the fastest speed, he forcibly pulled the existence of Jian truss into a normal and reasonable range. Perhaps, only a father like Jian Zhanfeng will give birth to a strong and upward daughter like Mo''er. And Jian Heng, he really only deserves to be Gu mohuai. "I want to see Xiaomo, I want to see Xiaomo..." Jian Heng said in horror, "you can''t kill me, you can''t kill me..." "Do you think I will be as dangerous as you," Gu Beichen said quietly, but without any tone, "stay behind her?" Jane truss''s eyes widened, and red blood filled his eyes. "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing only felt that his hand was empty. When he reacted, the gun was already in Gu Beichen''s hand He looked at Gu Beichen in horror, "Chen Shao!" Gu Beichen didn''t have a regular meeting with Xiao Jing, but when Xiao Jing moved, he said coldly, "stop!" "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing''s faces twisted together because of worry. Chen xuanchen was really crazy last night. Xiao Jing can''t let Gu Beichen''s hands get bloody. At the moment, he doesn''t care about the order and wants to stop it "You can''t kill -" "Bang!" Sound across, that moment, the whole world is quiet. Xiao Jing breathed heavily and stared. At the last moment, it seemed as if he didn''t believe Gu Beichen would shoot. Jian Chang slowly fell to the ground... Then he looked at Gu Beichen mechanically. "Chen Shao!" For so many years, he has followed Chen Shao for so many years! The shopping mall is not clean. Many people know this However, no one has ever solved anything himself. Brother Xiao put him next to Chen Shao, just because he came out of the dark. Even if he lived in the sun, he was black But now Gu Beichen''s cold face didn''t change any expression. It''s not the first time he''s fired a gun! Man... Naturally, it''s not the first time to kill! His world has been unclean since he entered the ink palace Thin lips pulled a sneer, and Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and cold. His Mo''er is responsible for purity... And he is responsible for blood! Once, someone said to him like this When a lot of things happen, when you are forced on that road and break your last bottom line, your heart... Will only become colder and colder! Maybe he was born like Shi Shaoqin! Gu Beichen threw the gun out, and Xiao Jing subconsciously caught it... Stood in place and watched Gu Beichen walk out indifferently. The heart seemed to be pressed with a big stone, and Xiao Jing was out of breath. He closed his eyes, and the corners of his mouth began to twitch... I don''t know whether it was panic or fear. They don''t need to kill Jian Heng personally, let alone chenshao But he decided... He decided to set foot in the ink palace again! The sunshine outside is very good. It shines on people warmly in late autumn. It makes people forget some dirty things. The Dragon owl looked at Gu Beichen who came out. There was a faint emotion in his Obsidian eyes, "it seems... I still didn''t catch up." "Sooner or later it''s up to you to decide, isn''t it?" Gu Beichen replied coldly. At the moment, even the hot sunshine can''t warm his heart. "Beichen..." "I''ve decided!" Gu Beichen spoke faintly. The Dragon owl felt a little heavy, but he didn''t say anything more, "since it''s decided, let''s do it..." He took a look at Xiao Jing who came out and then ordered Xiao Yu to "clean it up." Then he turned and got into the car and left. On the way back to the city, Xiao Jing didn''t speak, and Gu Beichen naturally couldn''t say it. The atmosphere inside the car has solidified. Just a little noise can cause an explosion. Look at the time, it''s noon Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to Jian Mo: it''s really too late to go back for lunch. I''ll bring you dessert later, huh? The text message replied quickly: OK! Gu Beichen frowned slightly: very busy? Even so busy that he can only reply to one word... Or is his Mo''er guilty of something? Jane Mo looked at the English and was worried. Andy, who had mixed Chinese and English, hurriedly replied: I haven''t finished the meeting yet. Gu Beichen saw it, and the corners of his mouth gently drew a smile. That smile spread across Junyan and reached the bottom of his eyes. ¡­¡­ "Stop!" Jane Mo has a big head. Looking at Mo Xiaoya and others who are watching a good play over there, he rubbed his forehead and said to Andy, "what information makes you think I''m in deep water and can only be saved by you?" Andy''s handsome sunny face was a little wronged, "everyone said so." "Everyone?" Jane Mo looked at the audience. Xiang night was the first to wave, "not me!" "Naturally, it''s not me..." Mo Xiaoya raised her eyebrows. "It''s not me!" Da Xiong looked at Andy and said with a smile, "he said everyone, that''s a report." Jane Mo''s head is bigger. She really feels that talking with a crooked nut in Chinese is broad and profound. She can''t talk clearly "Sister Mo, it''s more than twelve o''clock. Let''s have dinner first?" Mu Xiaoran looked at Jian Mo''s stomach. "You''re pregnant now!" Everyone seemed to react suddenly and packed up their things one after another, "anyway, this matter can''t be settled in the morning, and the discussion will continue in the afternoon..." "Many restaurants near the emperor are good. Welcome Mo Mo back, please!" Da Xiong said very manly. "Just eat in the executive restaurant?" Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and didn''t say the real reason. "My Gu always doesn''t trust me. I''m going to eat outside in my current state." Everyone clearly looked at Jian Mo''s swollen stomach, nodded one by one with a smile and no words... And went out of the conference room together. Chapter 624 Once a person has experienced a lot, he will become indifferent. Mo Xiaoya and Da Xiong are older in the same circle. It can be seen that Jian Mo is still the same as before, but they are obviously more indifferent and more casual to see everything. "Mo Mo," Mo Xiaoya said to Jian Mo, "I discussed with Da Xiong about the wedding after the Mid Autumn Festival." As soon as Jane Mo heard it, her eyes were full of laughter, "don''t stretch?" Mo Xiaoya smiled knowingly, "we''re all together. Although it''s a matter of form, we have to do it." "Yes..." Jane Mo said with a smile, "it''s better to have a man who loves himself around you than anything else." As soon as Mo Xiaoya heard this, she looked at Jian Mo with a smile and began to eat A group of people are having lunch, talking and laughing. Jian Mo is the happiest here. Working with Xiangyu people who can change the mode has different meanings for Jian mo. Jane Mo''s hanging hand gently circled around her abdomen. She smiled and thought to Xiao Yan: Mom has a father, you and milk bag. There''s really nothing you want in this life. "Sister Mo, the emperor''s staff meal has been upgraded again..." Xiang Wanyi said, "it''s much more exquisite and delicious than last time." Da Xiong couldn''t stand it. "Last time you compared the draft with Mo Mo, what you ate was the staff meal... Can it be the same now?" Xiang night turned off his face, looked at Jian Mo and said, "that''s... Now it''s the president''s wife, still pregnant with the future president!" Her words made everyone laugh. Only Andy''s muddled face, like his wronged daughter-in-law, looked at Jian Mo and wanted to cry without tears. "Andy," Jane Mo sighed and said seriously, "have you ever thought about going back to development?" He came to Los Angeles partly because of her, which she didn''t want to see. Andy shook his head. "I like it here!" He used Chinese, although very poor, but very seriously said, "I like Chinese culture!" Jane Mo shrugged and said seriously, "I hope you like it. It has nothing to do with me!" Andy''s face collapsed in an instant. People looked at him and held back their smiles Chinese people are different from foreigners. Chinese people like euphemism, but when dealing with foreigners, euphemism will only make them fight more and more bravely... Only tell him the answer clearly. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen returned to the villa, went to the guest bedroom, took a bath and changed into clean clothes. Xiao Jing had already disposed of his previous clothes. There was a smell of blood on them, as if reminding him of something. "Chen Shao, Xiao tezhu, the meal is ready." Aunt Luo put the soup on the table, "you can eat it." "Thank you, aunt Luo..." Xiao Jing said with a smile. Aunt Luo smiled kindly, glanced at Gu Beichen who came down from upstairs, and turned to the kitchen. There was a dignified atmosphere at the table. Gu Beichen is not surprised that he is a man of few words except for Jian mo. But Xiao Jing held back his stomach and wanted to say it, but he didn''t know how to say it... Or it''s no use knowing it. "The family is strict near the Mid Autumn Festival," Gu Beichen said calmly. "I''ll pick up Xiaojie." "Yes." Xiao Jing answered. Gu Beichen glanced at him and continued to order, "pick up aunt LAN by the way..." Xiao Jing looked up at Gu Beichen and opened his mouth. It was useless. Aunt LAN went to Spencer after grandma Gu''s death. Picking up aunt LAN for the Mid Autumn Festival is always less eye-catching than picking up young master Jie alone. After a simple lunch, Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing went to the company On the way, I also ordered Jane Mo''s favorite dessert and brought it with me. "Chen Shao!" When Susan saw Gu Beichen coming and looking at Xiao Jing, she said, "young lady is taking a nap in the lounge." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and went to the office without stopping. However, all the actions were put gently, for fear of disturbing Jane Mo''s nap. "How''s it going?" Seeing Gu Beichen enter the office, Susan can''t wait to ask Xiao Jing. Xiao Jing looked at her and said, "if you can handle the company''s affairs, it has something to do with you?" "..." Susan twitched at the corner of her mouth. "Why doesn''t it have anything to do with me? There''s something wrong with you and Chen Shao. I''ll care about it. What''s the problem?" "Don''t ask!" Xiao Jing was a little anxious. He turned and went to his office. Susan has never seen such a Xiao Jing. In her impression, this person is very ruffian on the surface, but black and cruel in the heart. He is a person who can hide his emotions, but it''s obvious that he can''t hold his emotions right now "What''s the matter?" Susan frowned and murmured, "did Jane truss say something?" Susan looked back at the closed office door and thought of the unusual smell that had just spilled over Gu Beichen. She thought it was quite possible. Gu Beichen pushed open the door of the lounge, and then went to the bedside. Jian Mo moved her eyelashes gently and slowly opened her eyes. "I''m disturbing you?" Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo''s face with some guilt. "Sleep is shallow these days..." Jane Mo said in a muffled voice and rubbed her face on Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen simply lay down and fished Jian Mo into his arms. Jane Mo suddenly frowned and then woke up for a few minutes. "I don''t remember your shirt this morning?" She looked down. "Aren''t the suit pants black?" Gu Beichen smiled with a smile in his mouth, "well, change!" Jane Mo immediately looked alert and sniffed at Gu Beichen, "honestly explain why she changed her clothes after going out in the morning!" Looking at her, if you dare to say what happened with other women, I can kick you down... Gu Beichen''s smile deepened. "If I say..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is slightly deep and his belly is black. "I just had dinner with a beautiful woman. I was afraid you were jealous and went back to change clothes?" "Beauty?" Jane Mo retreated. "Is there any beauty in me?" There is no doubt that Jane Mo is the embryo of beauty... Now she adds the unique charm of motherhood, which is even more charming. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo deeply and said, "it''s really shameless!" "I''m confident..." Jane Mo smiled and left her mouth, then said seriously, "in fact, men sometimes like to cover up." "What do you say?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows. Jane found a comfortable position on the arm of Beichen. "Women are very sensitive. If you really smell perfume, even changing clothes is useless." Gu Beichen turned over and didn''t pull out his arm from Jian Mo''s head. His other hand supported her on the other side to prevent himself from pressing her stomach So he looked down at Jane foam from the bottom and asked softly, "if I really had the perfume of a woman, what would you do?" Chapter 625 Jian Mo looked at the heat overflowing from Gu Beichen''s eyes, which made him a little bad. He directly lost his charming eyes and said coyly: "seduce you... Let you only have my taste!" Because Jianmo''s body is pregnant, Gu Beichen''s body has not been really released for a long time... Where can withstand Jianmo''s teasing him now? It''s not fun, but it''s OK to get some consolation Awards "OK..." Gu Beichen answered in a low voice, "then let me have only your taste." Then he lowered his head, and his thin lips captured the smiling lips. The lingering and gentle kiss made each other fall into love soon However, Li Yunze explained that Jian Mo was about to enter the period of physical insecurity. If you can bear it, you''d better bear it. Gu Beichen is a man with self-control. Although in front of Jian mo... This self-control is a little ridiculous. But for her and her children, he will not cause any harm to her for his enjoyment and comfort. Kiss, become deep. Mutual sucking and entanglement at the tip of the tongue tell the longing for each other. Jane Mo has a bath hope for Gu Beichen. She never hides it. Who says that only men can be urgent to women, but women can''t? Doing that with someone in love, she thinks it''s also a way to enhance feelings and enjoy each other''s love "Ah Chen..." when Gu Beichen let go of her, Jane Mo said with a groan, "I think!" She thought, Gu Beichen thought more! Somewhere, he was already dissatisfied that he was tight and uncomfortable because of his mouth addiction. "It''s all my fault..." Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo''s skin at the corner of her mouth and gently comforted her. "It makes you uncomfortable." Jian Mo kissed Gu Beichen at the corner of his mouth and said with a smile, "I said it on purpose..." "..." Gu Beichen lifted up slightly, saw her look cunning and proud, and couldn''t cry or laugh, "I''m uncomfortable, are you happy?" He leaned over and kissed her eyebrows. "I''m not afraid of problems." As soon as Jian Mo heard it, ''ha ha'' laughed She likes her indifferent general manager Gu, who is busy in front of her! When life is too comfortable, people will put down their defense and lose their sense of crisis. At least... Jane Mo is like this. It''s so painful for her to live peacefully every day, which makes her forget all the recent things. In the imperial design department, Jian Mo''s talent was recognized by everyone. From the beginning, many people were still holding the idea of the title of "President''s wife", and gradually, they were convinced by her profession. In a place like emperor, as long as you have talent and ability, you don''t have to worry about not being respected. "Xiaomo''er, how are you going to spend the Mid Autumn Festival holiday?" Li Tianyu has become more and more familiar with Jian Mo recently, and joking is unscrupulous. "We''re going to BBQ, together?" "I want to be with President Gu, so..." said with a smile, "I won''t participate in your activities." "I''m tired of being with my husband every day. I go to work and get off work together. Aren''t you tired?" Li Tianyu rolled his eyes. Jane Mo looked at the man standing at the door and smiled, "I''m not tired of being with my husband. I can''t be with you?" "What''s wrong with me..." Li Tianyu suddenly felt something wrong. He instinctively looked back and looked up at Gu Beichen''s indifferent eyes. After swallowing, he looked back at Jian Mo with complex eyes and said with a grin: "of course it''s not right to be with me... Although activities among colleagues are important, it''s more important to be with family on the Mid Autumn Festival." Then, gnashing his teeth, he said in a voice heard by two people: "you''ve hurt me badly." Jane Mo held back a smile from beginning to end. People in the office wanted to laugh and didn''t dare to laugh. Gu Beichen came over with his pocket in one hand and stood beside Jian Mo and looked at Li Tianyu. "I''ll have some friends come to play and set up a barbecue rack in the Mid Autumn Festival... Why don''t you join group leader Li?" "No, no, no..." Li Tianyu waved his hand and shook his head again. "I won''t disturb the president to enjoy family happiness." He laughed twice and looked at Jian Mo with a sad look in his heart. "Well... I still have something to deal with in my hand. I''ll be busy first." Watching Li Tianyu slip back to the office, Jane Mo''s smile deepened. "I''ll get my bag and I can go." Jian Mo gently pulled down Gu Beichen''s sleeve, went to the office, took out the bag and took the cold face God away from the office area When the solidified air began to circulate, I heard someone gloating and saying, "I suddenly thought that after group leader Li was put on small shoes by the president, I should have a chance to be promoted!" As soon as he said this, the crowd burst out laughing. On the way to pick up Jane Jie, the atmosphere in the car was a little strange. Xiao Jing looked at the two people from the rearview mirror and smiled at them. "That..." Jian Mo found that the man was jealous. In fact, he was still quite terrible. "Call doctor he and one by one back to play together?" She pretended not to know that Gu Beichen was cold. "Call Yunze, too. Anyway, they all know each other exists." Gu Beichen ignored her. Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and continued to look for the topic. "By the way, I don''t know if Xiao Yan also knows to meet her brother. She was very excited all afternoon and had a severe fetal movement!" Well, Gu Beichen didn''t hold his head. He looked at Jian Mo and couldn''t help putting his hand on Jian Mo''s stomach. His eyes became soft Xiaoyan estimated that he was in touch with his mother. Gu Beichen put his hand on it and he moved. At that moment, Gu Beichen was as happy as a child who ate sugar. "He moved..." "Because he knew his father wanted to feel him..." Jane Mo was already proud at the bottom of her eyes. Xiaoyan must be from the same country with her in the future. Tut Tut, she is cute in her stomach. She knows how to cooperate with her. Gu Beichen gently stroked Jian Mo''s stomach. During this period, Xiao Yan moved several times. His cold face also became soft. Xiao Jing turned over his eyes and make complaints about it. "Don''t try to change the subject..." Suddenly, Sen''s cold voice came. Xiao Jing looked in the rearview mirror. Gu Beichen didn''t leave Jian Mo''s stomach. His sight had looked at her again "Change the topic? What topic?" Jane Mo asked with an eyebrow. Gu Beichen cold charm hooked the corner of his lips and didn''t speak. He just looked at Jian mo Jian Mo was fluffy when he saw it. After all, he vented his anger. "Just kidding. It''s harmless." "Oh? Really?" Gu Beichen took the hand on Jian Mo''s stomach. Jane Mo nodded seriously, "yes... You can''t let me get along with everyone in the office, can you?" Gu Beichen''s sight was deep, and he gently lifted his thin lips and picked up the end of the words, "little Mo''er?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth. "Is it... I need to change my name in the future?" Gu Beichen''s voice was very gentle, but it was full of pressure. Jian mo ''ha ha'' smiled twice and was about to talk Suddenly, while a harsh brake sound came, she didn''t react. The whole person had rushed forward because of the sudden brake Chapter 626 With a scream of "ah", Jane Mo''s instinctive hands protected her abdomen Just as her forehead was about to touch the front seat, Yu Guangli scratched a hand and protected her forehead. At the same time, her shoulder had been held by the big palm, and the homeopathic man was pulled back Jian Mo was a little frightened, staring at her eyes and panting, her hands still protecting her abdomen... Her face was frightened. Gu Beichen hugged Jane Mo and saw her frightened look. He immediately blacked his face and looked at Xiao Jing, "what''s going on?" Xiao Jing looked back and saw that Jian Mo''s face didn''t calm down. He scolded himself secretly. Then he looked at Gu Beichen and said, "suddenly a child came out..." Then he loosened his seat belt, opened the door and got out of the car. Jane Mo suddenly reacted and looked at Gu Beichen with a black face. "What did Xiao Jinggang just say?" "He will handle it!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with some worry. Jane Mo smiled and shook her head, "I''m fine..." she sighed with relief, "just suddenly brake, I just..." Gu Beichen took Jian Mo into his arms and kissed her on the forehead painfully, "I know." He didn''t let her continue to explain. In fact, both of them knew... Or instinctively hid a sense of danger. When that scene just happened, Mo''er was nervous for the first time It''s not fear, it''s tension! With a deep sigh, Gu Beichen let go of Jian Mo, "Xiao Jing''s driving skills are very good. In the hands of boss long, no one can beat him except Xiao Nan." Jane Mo smiled and nodded, looking outside, "what''s going on?" She hooked her neck curiously. Gu Beichen also looked at the past. From their perspective, they could only see a tip after Xiao Jing squatted down "I, I''m fine..." the little girl looked back as she tried to push away Xiao Jing. By now, people had gradually gathered around, and the little girl''s face was full of fear. "I''ll take you to the hospital to wrap it up..." Xiao Jing looked at the little girl''s hand, which was full of blood marks because it rubbed against the ground. He didn''t know whether her body was broken because of falling down. "What about your parents?" "I have no parents!" The little girl began to tremble uncontrollably when she heard her parents, "uncle, I''m fine. Will you let me go?" "You..." "It''s here! You ran... Why didn''t you run? Didn''t you get hit by a car?" Xiao Jinggang was about to speak when he was interrupted by a violent voice He looked over and saw a man in his thirties with loose clothes, messy hair and long stubble. Then, the little girl looked at the man with a frightened face. Her small body began to rub behind Xiao Jing and subconsciously grabbed his sleeve. Xiao Jing looked at the little girl and suddenly took a breath in his heart... That feeling made him seem to be back when he was a child. The man looked at the little girl and saw the injury on her hand at the first sight. "Did you hit my daughter?" He pointed to Xiao Jing, "fortunately, there''s nothing serious. I''ll pay for the medical expenses!" "The uncle didn''t hit me!" When the little girl saw the man waiting for him, she was very afraid, but said stubbornly, "I, I''m fine..." Xiao Jing gently touched her. The little girl opened her mouth and looked at him. Xiao Jing''s eyes moved slightly. After reassuring her, she got up and said to the man, "the cost of nutrition and medicine will not be less." There was a flash of light in the man''s eyes "But I''ll take her to the hospital instead of giving it directly to you!" Xiao Jing snorted coldly. As soon as the man heard it, he was unhappy, "I''m her father. If you don''t give it to me, did you hit someone and want to default?" "You''re not my father!" The little girl said quickly. "What are you talking about?" The man immediately blew his hair and came forward to drag the little girl, "have you turned the sky?" Ignoring the tingling from her ankle, the little girl hid behind Xiao Jing... Her little hand pulled his clothes tighter. Xiao Jing''s eyes were slightly heavy. He raised his hand and blocked the man and pushed him away. The bottom of his eyes was completely cold. "In front is Huakang hospital. I''ll send her there... Either you go there by yourself or you can not go there directly." "Who are you?" The man stared and pointed at Xiao Jing, "do you want to abduct and sell my daughter?" As he said this, he happened to see several patrolmen passing by and hurriedly shouted, "Comrade police, he bumped into my daughter and was not responsible. He also abetted my daughter to run away from home!" "What''s going on?" The policeman frowned and came over. When he saw that it was Xiao Jing, he immediately changed his face, "Xiao tezhu, what happened?" Seeing the patrol police''s attitude, the man immediately knew that Xiao Jing''s identity should not be simple... He was thinking about how much blackmail was appropriate. Xiao Jing gave a cold look at the man and said, "I suspect he committed domestic violence against the little girl. I''ll take her to have an examination. Please deal with the rest." "Ah?" The patrol didn''t react for a moment. "Which bureau are you from?" Xiao Jing asked. The patrol said instinctively, "from the Southern District General Administration!" "Yes!" Xiao Jing answered, "I''ll follow up the progress of the case tomorrow." Then he looked at the man who was about to shout, but was caught by two other patrolmen, picked up the little girl and went to the co pilot. "Comrade police, why did you catch me... He hit my daughter and abducted and sold my daughter..." "Stop it, you!" The policeman looked back and said, "that''s the special help of the president of the emperor. Abducting and selling your daughter? Hehe... You really look up to yourself... Take it back first!" He motioned to the patrolman to get off the shelf. Ignoring the man''s shouting, he looked at the people around him and shouted, "it''s all scattered, scattered..." "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing took the little girl to the car without authorization, feeling a little uneasy, "I''ll take her to the hospital first." "What''s going on?" Jane Mo was slightly attached to her body. She saw the little girl looking at her, and subconsciously pinned her hand behind her. She frowned. As soon as she wanted to speak, Gu Beichen fished her back. A low voice came in time, "drive." Xiao nodded and fastened her seat belt for the little girl before starting the car and driving to Huakang Hospital On the road, the narrow car was filled with dignity. Jane Mo wanted to ask the situation several times, but Gu Beichen stopped her. After arriving at the hospital, Xiao Jing took the little girl to deal with the scratch. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo simply went to Li Yunze''s office "Something''s wrong with Xiao Jing?" Jane Mo frowned and asked. Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep and said, "it''s estimated that the little girl''s life experience reminds him of something..." "How do you know?" Jane Mo wondered. He was also in the car and didn''t go out. Gu Beichen smiled. When the elevator arrived, he pulled Jian Mo out. "I don''t know what happened, but I know Xiao Jing." Jane Mo heard it and thought about it "There are five of them," Gu Beichen told Jian Mo about Xiao Jing''s life experience. "They are all adopted by people around the adoptive father of boss long. They are basically picked up... Understand?" Jian Mo is a smart man. He can tell at a glance, "will Xiao Jing adopt that little girl?" Chapter 627 Gu Beichen frowned slightly and said softly, "I will arrange it, but I won''t adopt it." Jane Mo lowered her eyes, condensed her eyebrows, opened her mouth, and swallowed the words that almost came out of her mouth. Gu Beichen saw Jian Mo''s mind and sighed, "it''s not impossible to adopt her, but now you can''t take care of her..." "Now looking at the child, I......" Jane Mo stopped talking, lowered her eyes and gently stroked her swollen stomach. "In fact, she just thought... I''m past the age of willfulness." "Have you ever been capricious?" Gu Beichen smiled softly. Jane Mo stopped, was stunned, looked at Gu Beichen and said, "Marrying you is the most wayward thing I''ve ever done..." "..." Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, "but I think this is the most serious and thoughtful thing you have done!" "Shameless..." Jane Mo snorted. "You don''t need a face in front of your wife..." Gu Beichen replied. "Tut tut... My teeth are going to be sour!" The untimely voice came. When they looked, they saw Li Yunze leaning against the counter of the nurse station, still holding the medical record folder in his hand, looking at them with a smile. "I said..." Li Yunze gave the medical record to the head nurse and came over. "Can you think about the occasion?" "No." Jian Mo simply leaned against Gu Beichen''s arms, looked at Li Yunze''s bitter face, smiled and said, "come home for dinner tomorrow? I''ll cook..." Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen. "Is he willing to let you do it?" "He did it!" After looking at Beichen, Jian Mo picked his eyebrow and asked Li Yunze, "will you come?" Li Yunze drooped his eyes and pondered, "OK." "He Yining and 11 will also come..." Gu Beichen said indifferently. "I guessed." Li Yunze showed some indifference, "I don''t want to see that woman, and I don''t reject my daughter." Gu Beichen''s thin lips were shallow and hooked, and the dead duck who didn''t pierce Li Yunze had a hard mouth. "Why are you here?" Li Yunze frowned. "I didn''t mean to pick up today..." he paused and changed his mouth. "Did you pick up aunt LAN back to the villa for the Mid Autumn Festival?" "Xiao Jing was careless and almost bumped into someone." Gu Beichen said calmly, "it''s nearby. Bring it over and have a look." "Xiao Jing bumped into someone?" Li Yunze was surprised, "that''s really a long time to see..." The five siblings of Xiao''s family under Long Xiao are specially trained by his adoptive father... It''s strange that Xiao Jing drives so carelessly with Beichen and Jian Mo in the car. "You seem to be working hard in the hospital recently?" Gu Beichen took a glass of water to Jian mo. seeing that she was texting Jian Jie, he put the water aside first. "Huakang pharmaceutical factory has been put into production. In addition to conventional drugs, it is natural to have some targeted..." Li Yunze explained. "Recently, my father and I are going to set up a research group, so we are a little busy." Gu Beichen looked deeply at Li Yunze in his eyes, and his mouth was filled with evil smile, which was shallow if there was nothing. Li Yunze trembled in his heart and looked at Beichen angrily. He was very dissatisfied with his friend''s eyes that saw through the hearts of the people It was half an hour after Xiao Jing dealt with the little girl''s scratch. However, although Gu Beichen expected the problem, it was also a little troublesome. Jane Mo looked at the little girl and listened to the doctor say that she was very distressed when she was beaten for a long time, except for bruises on her body and even signs of bone dislocation. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo''s nose was sour and looked at the girl. In this way, her subordinates stroked her stomach consciously. Because of drugs, Jane Mo had been worried that Xiao Yan would be affected... Such emotions made her unable to see the suffering of children at all. "Xiao Jinghui is very clean..." Gu Beichen comforted and rubbed Jian Mo''s hand. "She will also be properly arranged, huh?" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s deep line of sight, raised his lips and nodded. Gu Beichen smiles at her and finally simply asks Xiao Jing to deal with the little girl. He drives a car and takes Jian Mo to school to pick up aunt LAN and Jian Jie. At the moment, the ink palace is full of treacherous and violent atmosphere... In strong contrast to the warm city of Los Angeles. From the castle to the factory, no one dared to breathe a sigh of relief. All the people seemed to drop their breath in their throat, ready to be the victims of this dignified at any time. "Bang!" "Clang..." "Ah --" "Dong!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Things are overturned, heavy objects fall to the ground at the same time, with the sound of debris From time to time, there was a roar... That roar fell into people''s ears and made people feel frightened. Morson stood at the door, listening to the sound inside, and gradually clenched his hands. Several times, he wanted to go in, but he finally held back. Suddenly Morson slowly tilted his head to the other side and saw Carney pushing the wheelchair with Shi Juchi sitting on it, staying about ten steps away from him. "Never less!" Morson restrained all his thoughts and saluted indifferently and respectfully. In the room, there was still a voice of rage, roaring one after another, stabbing into human nature. Shi juechi''s face is very pale. He has been cured recently and will be ready for surgery... But at this moment, his heart shrinks when he hears the sound in the room. "Never less..." Kani looked at Shi juechi''s sad appearance and shouted with his teeth. Shi juechi felt more and more uncomfortable. His hands were powerless to press the position of his heart, and his breath began to become urgent Mosen frowned, "never less, you''d better go back..." "Go back... Just... You can..." Shi juechi slowly looked up and said in a short voice, "you can act as... Don''t you know?" Morson had no words, and Carney leaned aside and couldn''t bear to see it again. Every year today, it''s not Qin Shao who suffers... Isn''t it? There was no light in the dark room. However, the mess on the ground reflects the sharp light of digging the wound. In the past, Shi Qin lost his neat clothes And the originally beautiful face became ferocious and terrible, just like a fierce ghost climbing out of hell. His eyes were scarlet, as if something was pestering him, making him despair, fear, resist... And even want to escape. No one can imagine that a person in charge of the Mexican palace who controls the underground drug trade and arms trade in Southeast Asia and even the world should have such a weak side at the moment. Time, little by little From the early rise of the sun to the other end of the horizon, when the ink sky was rendered by the bright moonlight, the violent sound in the bedroom gradually stopped. The door was finally opened. The light in the corridor was reflected into it. It was messy and bloody. Mosen lowered his eyes and saw that there were winding blood stains on Shi Shaoqin''s hanging hand, even... Dripping along his fingers. Chapter 628 "Shaoqin..." Shi juechi''s weak voice came, and there was a complex sadness in the bottom of his eyes. "Can''t you... Let yourself go?" He was very sad, not only sad, but his heart was overloaded. "It''s better for you to put down the root of my pain..." if you can''t put down my eyes like this, can''t you The roar echoed weakly in the corridor, and even echoed. Tears overflowed. Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin sadly. After so many years, not only Shaoqin, but also him... And him! What should he do to pull Shaoqin out of the vortex What can he do to end all this? Shi Shaoqin looked at Shi juechi for a long time before slowly taking back The wet feeling on his hands made his skin cold, and the blood condensed into blood droplets along his fingers at his fingertips, and then dropped on the long wool carpet on the ground. On the beautiful face, it is calm. However, we all know that this is the calm before the storm "Only destroy everything," Shi Shaoqin''s voice was as cold as a ghost, "maybe... It will end!" Then he turned indifferently and walked forward step by step under the desperate and sad sight of Shi juechi Mosen didn''t move. Everyone looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back and didn''t move. On the full moon day of the Mid Autumn Festival, only blood is used to pay tribute to all happiness... And misfortune! ¡­¡­ After dinner, Jane Jie was tired of being around Jane Mo, muttering, and her little hand was still gently on her stomach... For a while, she felt it here and there. From time to time, he also pasted his small face on Jane Mo''s stomach and wanted to hear something. "Doesn''t Xiao Yan like me?" After a while, Jane Jie asked in some distress. Jian Mo smiled with pride, "Xiao Yan and I are from the same country. Of course I won''t play with you..." "Can you stop being childish?" Jian Jie snorted, "you have a low IQ. You have to make Xiao Yan like you." "Jian Jie, can you stop talking about my IQ..." Jian Mo immediately blew his hair. "I didn''t come back to pick you up to annoy me... What else do you think of me? Do you deceive me?" Jian Jie fanned his dark eyelashes, and the black pupil glittered with light. He said innocently, "I mean... Miss Xiao Yan in your stomach. When did you miss you? I''m so amorous!" "..." Jane Mo was speechless and very confused. Is the milk bag her own? Why does he sell cute to everyone, just angry with her "Think Xiao Yan, right?" Jian Mo pulled a false smile. Seeing Jian Jie nodding, she smiled more falsely and nodded, "very good..." she got up, "Xiao Yan and I are going to bed. Play by yourself!" Then, with a proud face, she planned to go upstairs. Jane Jie was stunned and suddenly found something "Daddy, you''re right." Jian Jie glanced at Gu Beichen, who was reading the financial magazine. His small face had a forbearing anger. "A woman has a sharp weapon when she is pregnant. Anyway, no matter what problem, she can finally solve the problem with what she has in her stomach." Gu Beichen raised his thin lips and eagle eyes, looked at Jian Jie calmly and said, "don''t spread the war to me... I haven''t discussed this issue with you." Jane Mo''s angry face heard Gu Beichen say this and immediately understood that Jane Jie wanted to be angry with her on purpose. "Besides," Gu Beichen said, "it''s hard for my wife to get pregnant. What she does is right! Also, you can try to change the way you express your love and miss to Mommy... You''re not good for pregnant women." Jian Mo''s small face collapsed. Looking at Jian Mo''s proud face, he muttered, "wife slave..." "It''s ok..." Gu Beichen answered solemnly, completely turning "wife slave" into a compliment and accepted it gladly. Aunt LAN and aunt Luo came out with fruits and snacks, and their faces were full of smiles. In that way, people feel the warmth of a home harmoniously. The next day, the sun was wonderful. For the traditional reunion festival, because of the family, this festival is particularly different Besides, for Jian Jie, this is the first Mid Autumn Festival with his father, mother and brother... It is of great significance to leave the first family photo of the whole family on this day. The photographer is Xiao Jing. Jian Mo saw him playing with a very professional SLR and said with a smile, "Xiao Jing, is there anything you can''t do?" "Yes..." Xiao Jing looked seriously at Jian Mo''s stomach. "I can''t get pregnant!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and felt again that anyone who had been with Gu Beichen for a long time could choke you in a word, "has the little girl''s matter been solved?" Xiao nodded and didn''t say much. Jane Mo didn''t ask much. Everyone has a wound that can''t be touched at the bottom of his heart. Because of your curiosity, you don''t want to tear other people''s scars. It''s immoral and too hurtful Xiao Jing arranged the support in the villa yard and looked at Jian Jie talking about modeling to Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, with an envious smile at the bottom of his eyes. Whether you are an ordinary person or a person walking high... No one can resist the temptation of "home". The autumn wind is gentle and the sun is warm. The leaves have turned yellow, and a layer has fallen on the green grass The air is full of sweet scented osmanthus fragrance, as if in depression, but it tells everyone that autumn is coming into winter, so... Can spring be far behind? On camera Gu Beichen kneels on one knee and Jian Jie sits across his shoulder In this posture, Gu Beichen can kiss Jian Mo''s swollen stomach, and Jian Jie is just the same height as Jian Mo, with his small mouth tooting up The happiness on Jane Mo''s face was more shining than the sun. She kissed Jian Jie''s small mouth and held her bulging stomach in both hands. While feeling Jian Jie''s love, Gu Beichen also conveyed his love for Xiao Yan and her. The sunshine falls on them warmly, just like the light emitted under happiness and warmth... Warms people''s hearts. ''click!'' When the shutter was pressed, Xiao Jing fixed the happiness of this moment. "Mommy, I love you..." Jian Jie''s soft Nuo voice came, "it''s the happiest thing for me to be the child of you and daddy." He looked at Jian Mo without blinking like a deer. "Thank you for bringing me to this world... I think Xiao Yan and I are in the same mood at the moment." Jian Mo''s eyes turned red in an instant. I don''t know if Xiao Yan felt Jian Jie''s words and suddenly moved. "I also thank you..." Jane Mo said with red eyes, "choose me to be your mother!" "Worthless..." Jane Jie suddenly shrugged. "Daddy, you lost... I said, I can move mommy in three or two sentences!" "..." Jane Mo heard that the originally brewing emotion was broken in an instant, "Jane, Jie!" She gnashed her teeth and saw that Jian Jie had jumped off Gu Beichen''s shoulder and made a face for her. She didn''t forget to "tease" Jane Mo and ran away with a smile "Gu Beichen, you take care of your son!" Jane Mo roared angrily. Gu Beichen got up and Mo Tong looked at Jian Mo deeply. "Mo''er, I''m grateful that you can enter my world..." he said, regardless of someone watching, kissed Jian Mo''s lips and kissed off her "anger". Xiao Jing looked at the two people kissing, and his sight gradually became empty How good would it be if we could be so happy? Chapter 629 Li Yunze, with his arms around his chest, leaned on the car and looked at the two people kissing in the sun. There was a blessing smile on his face, but at the bottom of his eyes, there was a dim look No one wants to destroy the beauty of this moment. Everyone looks at the two people kissing gently with the sunshine Although there are many rich and powerful families who hide dirt and accept dirt, it is the same for everyone to pursue beauty and get a beautiful heart. God is fair. When you leave indelible sadness and darkness in your life, there will always be a day to guide you to light and happiness. It''s just that many people give up their persistence under pursuit and persistence. And Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, they didn''t leave the years to sadness, but worked hard to amaze the years! Why would you rather hold one by one''s hand and look at the two people hugging and kissing? Finally, a touch of astringency overflowed from the corners of your mouth. Li Yunze seemed to feel something and frowned slightly. At the same time, people had looked back At the right time, he Yining happened to see it. The moment they looked at each other, they burst out the complex emotions under the confrontation. "Mom, this uncle stares at you again!" One by one, it seems to be used to it, but it seems to be disgusted. Why should she calmly take back her sight? No matter what happens between her and Li Yunze, she doesn''t want to pollute her daughter''s world and has no right to guide her daughter to hate her father. Although, the daughter didn''t know... Or didn''t think that Li Yunze was her father. "He didn''t stare at me..." he Yining looked at Li Yunze and said calmly, "he is secretly in love with me and wants to chase me... But I didn''t give him a chance." One by one, he suddenly understood, "love but not... Well, no wonder he looks at his mother strangely." Why did Ning twitch at the corner of his mouth and point to the small head one by one, "what are you thinking in your small head?" "I wonder what kind of father my mother will find me in the future!" One by one said this, but there was a resistance to the word "Dad" in his eyes. My daughter was born by herself. I don''t know what to think, he Yining She is not a person who gives up everything for love, nor is she a person who sacrifices her love for her daughter. She is not a good mother, but she hopes to tell one by one by herself that even if there are too many ups and downs and misfortunes in life, fate should be in her own hands. "One by one..." Jane Jie ran from a distance, "Hello, aunt Yining." "Good!" Why should Ning squat down and look at the smile on Jane Jie''s face? Her cute appearance is about to melt her. "Xiao Jie..." seeing Jian Jie one by one, I forgot all the tangled or thinking problems just now, and stars can flash in my eyes. Jane Gerrard shook her hands one by one, "take you to a fun..." and looked politely at he Yining. He Yining smiled and nodded, "go!" With the permission of he Yining, Jane left one by one With the appearance of the episode, why should Ning get up and look at Gu Beichen and Jian mo The two people who had kissed each other before didn''t know when they had separated. Seeing her look over, Jane waved to her. He Yining smiled and just wanted to move, he saw Li Yunze coming. "I don''t want to argue or argue with you today," he said indifferently. "Please keep your attitude." Before Li Yunze opened his mouth, he was not lightly choked. He opened his mouth slightly and watched her go to Gu Beichen and Jian mo "Would you like to sit in for a while?" Gu Beichen asked with a slight frown when he saw that Jane Mo had been holding her swollen stomach. Jian Mo looked at him and he Yining, "you persuade Yunze..." "OK." Gu Beichen didn''t want Jian Mo to worry, so he answered. Jian Mo looked at Li Yunze who was still standing in place, and then went to the house with Jian mo I don''t know why, she suddenly had a scene in her mind... The scene of Los Angeles four young people having a party with their loved ones and children. That feeling made her look forward to it. Gu Beichen watched the two women enter the house before he took back his sight. At the same time, Li Yunze came to his side. "Go and sit over there!" Gu Beichen said that the man had gone to the sunshade on one side. "If you can''t let go, try to accept it?" Li Yunze was silent. Gu Beichen glanced at him and sat down on the chair with a thin cushion. "Maybe you''re the only one who always cares." "Hum..." Li Yunze hissed coldly, "Beichen, why should I be peaceful? Even if there is more love, it can''t be worth such a sharp weapon to hurt people." Gu Beichen took a deep look at Li Yunze and didn''t continue to persuade him. Yunze can''t let go. No one can let him let go... What''s more, it''s not on himself. Who can say he can let go? Xiao Jing went to make coffee for the two and sat down. "When are you going?" Li Yunze took a sip of coffee and asked without a head. Gu Beichen tilted his head. Within his sight, he could just see Jian Mo sitting on the sofa and chatting with he Yining from the French window The cold facial lines gradually became soft, and the eagle eyes looked at the smiling face deeply... Deeply infatuated and reluctant to give up. "Wait for Xiao Yan to be born..." Gu Beichen said faintly. Xiao Jing frowned and looked at Gu Beichen. He wanted to say something, but he didn''t say... Because he knew that since Chen Shao had decided, he was free to say anything. The only thing he can do is to let him have no worries at home and protect the young lady and two young masters as much as possible. Li Yunze''s face was dignified. After a long time, he asked, "I heard..." he paused. "Jane truss is your hand." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered the voice indifferently and took back his sight, "never clean, why cheat yourself?" Darkness and light are just a line apart. It just depends on which side you want to stand... Or try to stand on which side. ¡­¡­ The sound of the sea water tumbling, "Hua la... Hua la..." makes the calm beach smooth and traceless. Shi Shaoqin just looked at the waves and wiped out all the footprints he had left on the beach. His good-looking lips gently hooked with a touch of coldness. In this world, the trace of disappearance is always an illusion. His thoughts were suddenly interrupted by the itching feeling from his feet. Shi Shaoqin looked down... He saw a small crab "playing" around his feet. Shi Shaoqin didn''t move, but looked at the little crab walking sideways... His sight gradually became deep and bottomless. Suddenly Just when the little crab is boring and ready to leave Shi Shaoqin stepped on it! Time is quiet, and the rhythmic sound of the waves comes... It''s like everything in the world is controlled by fate. At the right time, Mosen came over, "Qin Shao, there are people from the Chen family!" Chapter 630 Shi Shaoqin listened and slowly raised his feet Drooping his eyes, he saw that the little crab fell into the sand and his legs and feet were still moving, but he couldn''t move. Turn around Shi Shaoqin calmly went to the sunshade, picked up the goblet, sipped the scarlet wine, let the taste buds be filled with mellow fragrance, and finally swallowed down his throat. "No!" Shi Shaoqin spoke faintly, and his voice was very light, which made people feel that they would not hear it if they were not careful. Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin as if puzzled. "Chen people..." Shi Shaoqin sneered, "Chen, I''m afraid I''ve been on guard for a long time." "Then..." mausen stopped talking. Shi Shaoqin gently shook the red wine glass and watched the bloody liquor slip from the glass wall and sink into the liquor at the bottom of the glass. His narrow eyes gradually narrowed. "How many shares have been issued?" Shi Shaoqin raised his eyes and looked at morsen. "Four!" "There''s another one..." Shi Shaoqin tilted his head and looked at the surging sea, "but there are three competing." "Yes!" Morson answered. Shi Shaoqin''s smile became more and more strange. After a long time, I heard him speak slowly: "let the news out, Chen family... I like it. As for who can get it at last, let''s rely on their abilities!" Mosen''s pupils dilated, but he turned around and recovered his calm, "yes!" Shi Shaoqin poured the red wine into his mouth and got up and went to the castle For the last share, the other two will naturally try their best to eliminate the Chen family. And now everything in the Chen family is caused by one person Chen, I want to see you, how to balance the head and tail! After returning to the castle, Shi Shaoqin went to Shi juechi''s room. He was so cold that he seemed to spread the cold everywhere he went, so that the air was cold. "The operation is scheduled for the end of the month..." Shi Shaoqin said calmly, not discussing, not asking, just informing. Shi juechi sat in a wheelchair, his face pale without a trace of blood. Last night, even though it was stormy waves, calm returned today... It seems that many things have never happened. Shi juechi turned around in his wheelchair, "aren''t you afraid of failure?" "Can that be worse than what''s happening now?" Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "juechi, you can''t stop it." Shi Jue Xi frowned. "What if the operation is successful?" He asked with some sadness. Shi Shaoqin leaned slightly and his eyes fell on an abstract painting on the wall. "Who knows? Maybe... Continue to suffer. Maybe..." the corners of his mouth suddenly smiled. That smile was so beautiful that people could forget the cold air at the moment. He glanced at Shi juechi. "Maybe we will continue to suffer together in hell." Then Shi Shaoqin stared deeply at Shi Juxi, turned and walked out "Shi Shaoqin!" Shi juechi was a little angry. Because he was too angry, he began to cough violently. Shi Shaoqin stopped and turned his back to Shi juechi. He didn''t move. Even the expression on his face didn''t change... Everything was indifferent. "If you don''t cherish yourself, what do you expect me to do to you?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was calm and even indifferent. "If you want to pay for Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, you can..." Shi juechi managed to hold back his cough, and the position of his heart contracted sharply... He endured the suffocation under sadness, looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back and didn''t speak. "Juechi, you say..." Shi Shaoqin tilted his head slightly and looked back. "If you don''t succeed in the operation, will I be angry and take out my anger directly with the child in Jian Mo''s stomach?" As soon as Shi Juxi heard this, his face suddenly became frightened and frightened Shi Shaoqin sneered, opened the bedroom door and went out. People have weaknesses. His weakness is juechi, and juechi''s weakness... It''s not Gu Beichen or Jian Mo, but him! Step, stop in the corridor. Shi Shaoqin looked at the sunshine outside the glass in front, his eyes cold. He is a man who pulls out all the light. After his life was thrown into darkness at that time, he has no right to enjoy the light anymore Only when all people fall into darkness, can his life be redeemed! There is darkness in the world because there is a place where light can''t find However, the choice is in everyone''s hands. How you choose or for whom you choose often changes not only you, but also your most important person. The huge villa on the top of the mountain has been cold at the beginning without a trace of temperature... Up to now, it is happy and warm. It carries the ups and downs of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo and works together. "Mo Mo..." he Yining gave the roasted intestines one by one, then went to Jian Mo and sat down. "What did you think when you brought Xiao Jie back with Gu Beichen?" Jane Mo Chuo smiled and shared her experience, "I love him..." Why rather frown, some do not understand. "I loved him before I left. After more than four years, I didn''t forget that I was worthless..." Jane Mo said without shame. "Then he chased me again. I stretched... I didn''t stretch, so we went together." "No, because of Xiao Jie?" Why rather tentatively asked. Jane Mo shook her head and said with a smile, "the milk bag is very smart. He wants to know who his biological father is and wants me to be with my biological father... But it doesn''t mean he doesn''t consider my happiness." Seeing why Yining looked thoughtful, Jian Mo continued: "that is to say, if you want your children to understand and not forget their original heart, first... Start with yourself!" Jane Mo blinked her eyes and gently stroked her stomach... When Xiao Yan moved, she always had a maternal smile at the bottom of her eyes. He Yining''s mood was a little dignified. After a long time, she asked nervously, "there are some problems between you and Gu Beichen that have not been solved. Can you be sure to go on like this with him?" Jian Mo''s sight became distant and knew what he Yining meant. "I believe him..." paused. She pulled the corners of her mouth and looked at he Yining. "Besides, the gratitude and resentment of the previous generation, no matter what, I added it to him. It''s unfair." "Aren''t you afraid that others think you''re because..." why did Ning zhe choose the soft way as much as possible, "because you want to be with him, you can explain it to yourself like this?" "I''ve been talked about less all day with him?" Jane Mo smiled. "I care about everything. I can''t be tired to death?" Jian Mo moved slightly and drank the chicken soup brought by Aunt LAN, "Yining, our mouth is on others. We don''t live for others... But ourselves." She sighed, "although it is impossible to say that she doesn''t care at all, the gossip is only temporary, and me and him..." Jian Mo stopped his voice and looked tenderly at Gu Beichen, who was wearing sportswear and playing badminton with Li Yunze. His infatuation seemed to be in love, "he and I... Are a lifetime!" Chapter 631 At night, the moon is full because of reunion. Jian Mo put his hand on the fence on the balcony of the bedroom, raised his head, looked at the bright moon in the dark sky, and whispered, "Xiao Yan, let''s ask dad to tell us a story later, OK?" As she spoke, she lowered her eyes and fell gently on her abdomen. As the days get longer and longer, Xiao Yan becomes more and more active... Most of the time, as long as she interacts with him, he will respond to him. "OK..." Gu Beichen''s low and magnetic voice came from behind. Then, from behind Jian Mo, he circled her into his arms. "Didn''t I let you rest first?" Gu Beichen blamed in his voice, "it''s cold at night, and I''m not afraid of getting sick?" Jane Mo said sweetly, "isn''t it some hug?" She said this because she was happy in her heart, but it also made Gu Beichen''s heart instantly wrapped in honey. Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo''s neck and earrings. The warm breath fell on her skin. It was itchy, but it moved her "Ah Chen..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen answered in his nose, but his thin lips didn''t let Jian Mo''s skin go. Jane Mo was tickled by her. I don''t know if the pregnant woman has different expectations for that. Anyway, now as long as Gu Beichen teases her, she can be moved. Gu Beichen didn''t dare to continue for fear of making Jian Mo uncomfortable Yunze said that the first three months and the last three months of pregnancy should be restrained... He didn''t want to put Mo''er and Xiao Yan in danger for his bath. "You said, will Yining and Yunze be together..." Jane Mo asked. Gu Beichen couldn''t laugh or cry, "you really broke your heart that it''s none of your business..." "I just thought, everyone can be happy." Jane Mo turned around in Gu Beichen''s arms and said after facing him, "I think Yining has a knot in her heart. In fact, does she love Yunze?" "Love or not, only your own heart knows... Anyone can cheat, but your own heart can''t cheat." Gu Beichen was afraid that Jane Mo would feel uncomfortable when she was outside for a long time... She simply picked her up and walked to the bedroom. Gu Beichen is as easily pregnant as she used to be, but now she''s not as pregnant as Gu Beimo. Gu Beichen put her gently on the bed, closed the balcony door and bedroom door first, and then lay down next to Jane mo. "After they left, you''ve been a little restless..." Gu Beichen took Jian Mo into his arms. "You''re pregnant now. It''s not something you can worry about. Don''t think about it, huh?" Jane Mo rubbed in Gu Beichen''s arms, and answered skillfully, "um..." Gu Beichen adjusted the wall lamp, hugged Jane Mo and said, "sleep!" "You haven''t told a story yet..." Jian Mo said, "don''t fool me and Xiao Yan." Gu Beichen smiled, pecked at Jian Mo''s mouth, and said vaguely in a low voice in her ear, "I''m your whole story... With me by your side, do you still need to tell?" Jane Mo smiled sweetly at the corner of her mouth. She didn''t say anything. She just kissed Gu Beichen''s Adam''s apple, "good night, husband..." "Good night!" Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo on her forehead and hugged her in a way that didn''t make Xiao Yan uncomfortable. On the night of the Mid Autumn Festival with family and lovers, dreams are always sweet and people don''t want to wake up But as the only fair time in the world, it won''t stop moving because of your happiness. The day before yesterday, it was sunny, but it was a little gloomy early in the morning. It seems that an autumn rain is coming "Good morning, Daddy!" Jian Jie sees Gu Beichen coming downstairs and says hello to sell Meng. He is a self disciplined child. He goes to bed and gets up on time without special circumstances. "Good morning..." Gu Beichen sat down next to Jian Jie, took a sip of the porridge handed over by Aunt LAN, and then asked, "arrange for a girl to go to your class and join you." Jane Jie frowned. "Who?" "Just be an ordinary classmate..." Gu Beichen didn''t explain more. "Isn''t it a child''s daughter-in-law?" Jian Jie said, and he was shivering with cold words. Gu Beichen frowned, and the eagle''s eyes looked faintly at Jian Jie Chien Chieh hung his head and muttered, "I''ll just make sure. You don''t have to look at me like this..." Although the voice was small, Gu Beichen heard it. He sighed and said slowly, "you are the one who wants to be your brother. You should set an example in everything in the future, okay?" "Understand..." Jian Jie looked at Gu Beichen, and his black pupil was completely serious. "I will not make Mommy angry in the future. I know... It''s hard for her to conceive me, and it''s even harder to conceive Xiaoyan." Gu Beichen lightly hooked the corner of his lips and stroked Jian Jie''s head. "I will compensate for what is missing... However, you should have the responsibility and responsibility. You can''t deliberately not face it because of my lack and your age." "I understand!" Jian Jie nodded firmly and smiled at Gu Beichen. His father and son ate breakfast almost synchronously. Aunt LAN and aunt Luo looked at it. They both had only one feeling It''s like Gu Beichen''s childhood reflection is on one side, and Xiaojie also let him find the past... Even if everything can''t go back to the past. "Daddy, will you go out with mommy later?" Jane asked. "Yes." Gu Beichen didn''t explain much. On Su Zhenqi''s birthday, although there was no public birthday banquet, several wealthy families in Los Angeles still had to go there. Besides, Su Jun is still on this floor Jian Mo got up and had breakfast. Seeing Gu Beichen''s overseas call in his study, he simply went for a walk in the yard. Maybe it''s because of the bad weather. It''s windy and cold outside. Jane Mo gathered a pair and planned to go back and wait. Turning around, I caught a glimpse of the open garage ahead... A servant was cleaning. Gu Beichen is very rich. Rich people often change cars. She knew this for a long time. However, has Gu Beichen calculated how many cars she has changed, or how many cars she is driving now I don''t know if I''m curious. Jane Mo turned and walked past. When she saw the Spyker driven by Gu Beichen five years ago, she was a little surprised. After all, if you don''t deal with old cars, how big garage do you have to get to keep cars for five years or even longer? However, when she saw Spyker, Jian Mo was actually very happy... No matter what Gu Beichen thought, she always felt full of memories. "Young lady." When the servants saw her, they greeted her with a smile. "If you''re busy, I''ll just walk around..." Jane Mo said and went to the Spyker. Xu has been cleaned all the time. The cars here are very clean and there is no dust. Jane Mo opened the door and went up. Fortunately, Spyker was spacious, and she didn''t feel depressed when she sat down. Jane Mo looked around at the small space in the car. She thought many memories would be blurred, but... She knew at this moment that they were very clear. For example Jane Mo''s face became hot and dry in an instant, and she grinned: "how impressive was that time in the supermarket parking lot?" Jane Mo left her mouth and despised herself... She felt that it was completely caused by some dissatisfaction with her recent needs. The cell phone rang sweetly. Jian Mo went to get her cell phone. Seeing that it was Gu Beichen, she quickly picked it up. "I''m here in the garage... I''ll go back now." "I''ll wait for you here in the parking lot, huh?" "Well, good!" Jane Mo answered and opened the door to get off. Suddenly, she caught a glimpse of light. She stopped and looked When she saw something clearly, she first frowned, then her pupils expanded, and her face was surprised! Chapter 632 Jane Mo narrowed her eyes, then turned sideways... To pick up the necklace that fell in the crack. Pick up Jian Mo looked carefully over and over again for several times... Finally, her eyes fell on the M shape, and the corners of her mouth began to grin. When she opened the door, Jane Mo''s face was full of an expression ready to ask for a crime. Gu Beichen... You''re dead! Jane Mo secretly gnashed her teeth and then walked to the villa The servants who were still cleaning looked at each other. I didn''t know how the always kind young lady was still normal when she got on the bus. After getting off the bus, she owed her millions. Gu Beichen stood by the car with his pocket in one hand and was talking on the phone again Hearing the sound of footsteps behind him, he looked back and said calmly, "let''s talk about the rest later. The market should keep an eye on it... I''m afraid this is not the time to relax." Then he cut off the phone and put it in his pocket Jane Mo also walked in, but her face was angry. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at Jian Mo with doubt in his eyes Jane Mo stood still in front of Gu Beichen and looked up slightly. Her eyes were aligned with Gu Beichen''s puzzled eyes... She suddenly pulled the corners of her mouth and showed a smile of skin smiling and flesh not smiling. Gu Beichen frowned. "What''s the matter?" He asked softly. Jane Mo''s smile is bigger, but it''s still fake. She raised her hand slowly, and when Gu Beichen fell on her hand from her face with an inquiring vision, her hand was released A fine Necklace hung down from the finger and crossed a dazzling light in the faint sunflower. When Gu Beichen saw the necklace, the ink pupil became deep and bottomless... But it was only for a moment that he recovered his peace. "What is this?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo indifferently and asked. Jane Mo''s hand moved slightly, took the necklace back to her hand and hung it down. With a fake smile, she asked, "I don''t know what it is?" "Know..." Gu Beichen nodded. "It''s a necklace!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and then asked with gnashing teeth, "why is this in your car?" Gu Beichen still frowned and didn''t ask anything, waiting for Jian Mo to continue. "It''s the Spyker you used to drive five years ago..." Jane Mo clenched her teeth and squeezed words out of her teeth. "That should be normal?" "Huh?" Jane Mo was stunned for a moment. "Although you don''t often go out with me, you still take the bus occasionally, don''t you?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo thought for a while, and then she reacted... Gu Beichen meant that she accidentally fell into his car. It''s normal! "Ha ha!" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and pretended to smile, "I didn''t drop this necklace on your car..." "How could it be in my car?" Gu Beichen asked with leisure. Jian Mo turned Gu Beichen and walked around. "I dropped this necklace in heal Hot Spring Club... The waiter over there didn''t find it later." She stood in front of Gu Beichen and said, "excuse me, Mr. Gu, how could it be in your car?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently scratched a thin smile, "I never knew that Miss Jane was so interested in the jewelry Susan bought for you... Where did she fall, and would she look for it?" "Susan didn''t buy this!" Jane Mo stared. Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep. "Oh? Who bought it?" "It''s Jun Li sending..." Jane Mo suddenly stopped her mouth. She looked at Gu Beichen''s evil smile and secretly despised herself. It''s obviously that she came to ask questions. How can Gu Beichen turn her back on her? "What I''m talking about now is... Why is the necklace with you!" Jian Mo didn''t talk nonsense with Gu Beichen either. He directly gritted his teeth and asked, "why hide my things." "I gave you the answer..." Gu Beichen was filled with sour energy. Jian Mo was stunned at first, and then responded with a "hey hey" smile, "tut Tut, unexpectedly... President Gu began to secretly love me so early?" "..." Gu Beichen looked at the cunning in Jian Mo''s eyes, and the smile from the corners of his mouth spread instantly. He leaned forward, almost wiping Jane Mo''s face with his face, and finally stopped at her ear and said quietly, "you are allowed to be silent, but I am not allowed to be secretly?" "Dong, Dong, Dong..." Jane Mo suddenly covered her heart. I don''t know why. Gu Beichen''s words made her heart beat faster The spreading joy and the little interest under the surprise suddenly dissipated the "anger" just now. "If someone admits it, it''s easy to say!" Jane''s face was smug and slightly curled her mouth. Gu Beichen got up and took Jian Mo''s hand. His eyes looked at her deeply, "how can I have something sent by other men on my Gu Beichen''s woman?" Jane Mo listens and feels that her hands are empty. She hasn''t reacted yet... The necklace in her hand has reached Gu Beichen''s hand. "Lin''s private customization..." Gu Beichen looked at the double m design on the necklace. The eagle''s eyes were getting deeper and his voice was a little secluded and said, "Mo''er... Did you really have any idea about the third Shao of the Su family before, huh?" The voice fell, and Gu Beichen looked at Jian mo. Jane Mo pulled the corner of her mouth, "if I say..." she paused deliberately and learned to Approach Gu Beichen like that. Her eyes twinkled with a cunning sentence, "... Yes! What about you?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and saw that Jane Mo passed him proudly, and then opened the door to get on the bus. Gu Beichen smiled, lowered his eyes and shook his head. "Women are still stupid and cute." "Men are jealous... Very cute!" With that, Jane, don''t be weak. Gu Beichen looked at the necklace in his hand and didn''t throw it away. He just put it in his pocket and got on the bus "Don''t accept gifts from other men except me in the future!" Gu Beichen set the rules while starting the car. "Impossible!" Jane Mo looked calm. "I don''t want to accept milk bags and Xiao Yan''s gifts." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo and continued, "deal!" Jian Mo smiled and looked at Gu Beichen driving. "Junli is going to hold a world tour concert soon. When you choose a gift for Grandpa Su, choose one for him." "You don''t accept gifts, but give them instead?" Gu Beichen asked sharply. "Otherwise?" Jane Mo smiled and waited for Gu Beichen to respond. Gu Beichen was so indifferent that he glanced at Jian Mo, then looked ahead and said, "it''s time to give... Well, I''m going to give him a gift to thank him for doing so much for my wife." Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously, but from his tone, she didn''t hear anything wrong Only when she knew what Gu Beichen had sent Su Jun away, did she understand that men are stingier than women! Chapter 633 Xiao Jing led the little girl who had just been identified by the forensic examination out of the police station. He opened the door and motioned her to get on the bus. The little girl looked back at the badge of the police station, smiled her lips and got on the car silently. After Xiao Jing got on the bus, he didn''t drive directly. He just looked at the girl one year older than Jian Jie and asked, "now, you still have the right to decide whether you want to go with me or go to the social welfare home." "I''ll go with you!" The little girl''s eyes were completely firm. "When my mother was dying, she told me that only when my fate was under my own control, could I have a way to escape my stepfather." She tried hard, so now her stepfather who abused her mother to death has been arrested... She also believes more in what her mother said. "Naive!" Xiao Jing said coldly, "only the strong can control their own destiny... However, in this world, your strength is only aimed at those who are weaker than you." The little girl didn''t understand Xiao Jing''s words, but she didn''t dispel her faith because of his words. "Then I will become stronger!" Xiao Jing took back his sight and looked ahead. "I''ll take you to school. As for whether you can catch up with someone... It depends on your luck." The little girl looked at Xiao Jing, frowned and asked, "who?" "I''ll go through the adoption formalities for you these two days..." Xiao Jing didn''t answer the little girl''s words, but said calmly, "from now on, your name will be ''Xiao Yi''." "Xiao Yi..." the little girl whispered, clenched her little hand and nodded heavily. Xiao Jing looked at Xiao Yi again and sighed softly, "I hope you don''t regret your choice today..." "I won''t!" Xiao Yi gritted his teeth and said, "no matter how bad it is, it can''t be worse than my previous life." She doesn''t want to be beaten or chained. She eats leftovers like a dog... She also wants to go to school and decide things. Xiao Jing looks at the firmness in Xiao Yi''s eyes and feels sad Only children who have experienced a life inferior to that of pigs and dogs can understand that they can get rid of the past only by redoubling, or even many times, their efforts! ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen and Jian Mo chose a gift for Su Zhenqi. After delivering it to order, they went to the company first. For Gu Beichen, there are no holidays. After all, domestic holidays are not foreign The emperor, as an international listed company, is naturally not as leisurely as expected. There are also many overtime departments in the company. When the connection between the design and the construction site of the opera house is really tense, Shen Chu and they are all working overtime. Jane Mo went down and turned around, and went upstairs to read As soon as the man got out of the elevator, he saw Xiao Jing coming out of Susan''s office. She quickly called out, "Xiao Jing!" "Young lady..." Xiao Jing said hello, "what''s up?" "I..." Jane Mo hesitated and asked, "I''ll ask about the girl." Xiao Jing smiled. "The man is his stepfather, mother..." he smiled and said with a heavy voice, "my mother died because she was raped by domestic violence. We met that day and she escaped." After hearing this, Jane Mo immediately frowned. "It''s all taken care of," Xiao Jing said. "The man has been put in prison. As for the girl, I''ve made arrangements... School or something will be on track." "Oh..." Jane Mo answered, indicating that she was all right and went to the tea room. However, after taking a few steps, I looked back at Xiao Jing who entered my office, and there was a trace of forbearing sympathy across my eyes. Ah Chen said that when Xiao Jing saw the girl, he felt the same way... Was that what happened to Xiao Jing when he was a child? Jane Mo thought, walked into the lounge and took the milk out of the fridge to heat It is hard to imagine that today''s Xiao Jing once had such a booing childhood. At this moment, Jane Mo didn''t think how much it would cost Xiao Jing to become such a "decathlon". Xiao''s five siblings are not just five However, only five of them are left to be around the Dragon owl in the end. After the Mid Autumn Festival, it rained in Los Angeles... Suddenly, the temperature dropped sharply, as if it was going to winter in advance. Finally, the sunflower came out in the morning, but it was gloomy before people went out. Jian Mo is a little lazy these days, and her feet are beginning to swell... Obviously, Huai Xiaoyan is harder than Huai Jianjie. Mr. Gu Xiangchen didn''t participate in the design of the villa, and Mr. Gu Xiangchen didn''t take him to the office building of the company "Foam, isn''t it uncomfortable?" Mo Xiaoya asked with concern when she saw that Jian Mo was in a bad spirit. Jane Mo shook her head. "I don''t know if it''s the weather. I feel very tired these days..." "Sister Mo, did you go to the hospital for examination?" Mu Xiaoran asked with concern. Jane nodded. "The doctor said it was normal..." Li Yunze also looked at it and said that although the previous medicine had no effect on Xiaoyan, it caused a burden on her body, and she would work harder and harder with the increase of months. It has been more than seven months. As long as Xiao Yan can come to this world safely, what''s the point of her hard work? Besides, with ah Chen by her side, she doesn''t feel hard. "Let''s deal with the rest..." Da Xiong said. "Anyway, the plan is basically settled." Andy nodded quickly and said proudly, "I know your design direction best. Don''t forget... We are the best partners!" "Not so delicate..." Jane Mo was warm in her heart and stood up with her stomach. Xiang night hurried to help him. He just wanted to talk... Suddenly, there was a strong push at the door. Everyone was shocked and looked at the place where the voice came... Li Yunze''s shoes didn''t change, and he strode in with a strange expression on his face. "Yunze?" Jane Mo frowned and looked puzzled. "What about Beichen?" "In the study..." Jian Mo answered subconsciously. Li Yunze didn''t say anything and walked to the second floor Everyone moved their eyes with his actions and wondered one after another. "I can see another living Los Angeles four young..." Xiang night said in a daze, "but he seems to be in the wrong mood?" With that, she turned her head to Jane mo. Jian Mo didn''t speak. Seeing that Li Yunze even forgot to knock on the door, he pushed open the door of the study Gu Beichen was holding a video conference and saw Li Yunze. His indifferent eyes fell on the video again. "The rest is reported to Xiao Jing and the meeting ends!" Then he cut off the video signal and looked at Li Yunze, "what happened?" As soon as Chen Xuan closed the door, he asked, "do you know your identity?" Chapter 634 Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly and didn''t speak. "Yes or no?" Li Yunze gritted his teeth and asked, squeezing out the gap between his teeth word by word. For his friend, even though he had guessed the answer, he wanted to listen to Beichen''s own answer. "Yes!" Gu Beichen''s voice was calm and there were not too many waves. "OK... OK!" Li Yunze sneered, "that''s nice..." Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned, "Yunze..." "Don''t call me!" Li Yunze roared, his eyes widened, and even his eyes were filled with blood. "Gu Beichen, that''s how you are a brother, isn''t it?" Gu Beichen stood up and looked up at Li Yunze. "When I knew, he had married Jinxi..." "Ho!" Let Li Ming and Li Ming know what''s going on today, but let Li Ming and Li Ming know what''s going on in their eyes Li Yunze finally couldn''t control his emotions and roared loudly. "Li Shao..." "Shut up!" Li Yunze suddenly pointed to Xiao Jing. Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth and shut his mouth without saying anything more. "Beichen, tell me... You just need to tell me now!" Li Yunze gritted his teeth and asked, "is there a simple foam in it to make things develop to this point?" Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned, and the corners of his mouth moved back and forth, but there was no explanation. "Good, good... It''s really great... Ha ha!" Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen more and more disappointed. "Brother, if you are like this, what else can I say?" Disappointments spread, and his eyes even overflowed with resistance to some emotions. Gu Beichen didn''t explain or even speak. But now, Li Yunze doesn''t need what he said Brothers from small to large, what else do you need to explain sometimes? Or, what do you need to say? He asked, is it to let Beichen cheat him? However, if it wasn''t for Beichen to cheat him, he knew everything. Why did he ask again? Li Yunze nodded and looked from anger to disappointment to despair He seemed to be unable to prove anything, but hung his shoulders, turned around, opened the door of the study, and dragged his heavy steps to leave Suddenly, he stopped and looked at Jane Mo standing next to the study with her stomach. Jane Mo also looked at Li Yunze, and gradually her lips. "Things between us..." Li Yunze spoke after all, but he looked pale and weak. "Don''t care..." he laughed at himself enough at the lower lip corner, "just keep your baby at ease." Jane Mo didn''t speak, just looked at Li Yunze. Li Yunze tilted his head slightly, glanced sideways at Beichen, and then walked away However, when passing by Jianmo, the steps stopped slightly. Jian Mo turned around and watched Li Yunze leave... It was better to come in a hurry and obviously heavy. She looked back at Gu Beichen who came out and smiled. Others may think that the four young people in Los Angeles are just because of their status and power, because they are similar in age. However, she knows... Their feelings can''t be compared with those between her and Li Xiaoyue. It will only be deeper, that kind of kinship deeper than brothers. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo''s heart was suffocating. The sound insulation effect of the study is very good. Although Li Yunze roared a few words, she didn''t know what happened because she listened intermittently. Gu Beichen gave Jian Mo a reassuring look, and then watched Li Yunze leave the villa. In such a big villa, the atmosphere is a little dignified. Daxiong motioned to everyone, then greeted Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, and left one after another. "Go and find out what happened to the Li family?" Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing and ordered him. "Yes!" Xiao Jing answered and left. Jane Mo walked forward and gently took Gu Beichen''s hand. She didn''t say anything, but looked at her... There was worry in the bottom of her eyes. Gu Beichen chuckled at her loose hair. "Yunze and I are childhood friends, and our relationship won''t crack because of one or two things. Don''t worry, huh?" Jane Mo encircled Gu Beichen''s waist, put her cheek on his chest and said softly, "I believe you can solve..." Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo, stroked her with his big palm and comforted her... But the lines of his face were tight. The five pieces of goods from the Mo Palace are Shi Shaoqin''s chips to make the Chen family a target of public criticism The ultimate goal is to force him. In fact, he doesn''t have to force... He will find him in three months at most. However, Gu Beichen didn''t think of it at this moment The change of things made him unable to wait for three months! ¡­¡­ Chen Xuan looked at the mess in the room. Finally, his eyes fell on Li Jinxi, who was standing in the corner. His face was full of pain. "Jinxi..." "Don''t call me --" Li Jinxi roared. Tears overflowed out of her uncontrollable strength. She looked at Chen Xuan with pain in her eyes. That kind of pain is not deception, but the hatred that there is no way to cross the domain. "Why, why are you from the Chen family, why?" Li Jinxi burst into tears and collapsed. She slowly rubbed down the wall and limped away. Suddenly... Her stomach suddenly hurt. Her whole face was twisted together because of the sudden pain. Chen Xuan felt something wrong and stepped forward with an arrow, "Jinxi..." "Don''t touch me!" Li Jinxi powerlessly pushed Chen Xuan away, his stomach hurt again, and his whole face became pale. At the right time, a wet thing fell along the root of the thigh and gradually soaked the flesh colored silk stockings. Chen Xuan looked at Li Jinxi in pain, and his angina pectoris began, "except that I''m from the Chen family, what''s my relationship with the Chen family?" He growled, "I can''t decide to be born, can I?" "You go..." Li Jinxi said weakly. "You go, I don''t want to... Don''t want to see... Don''t want to see you..." "Jin Xi?" Chen Xuan felt wrong and looked up and down at Li Jinxi. When he saw the blood on her leg that had spread to the top of her knee, Chen Xuan''s face suddenly became frightened. Where could he care that Li Jinxi wouldn''t let him touch her? He grabbed her and ran out The car quickly drove to Huakang hospital. Fortunately, their apartment is not far from Huakang. The sound of rollers rubbing against the ground, mixed with the sound of hurried and messy footsteps "Xuan Shao, wait outside!" The emergency doctor stopped Chen Xuan, who had to follow him into the emergency room, and then turned and entered the emergency room. Chen Xuan was sweating all over his head. Everything developed so fast that he didn''t even give him any time to deal with it. "Bang!" In the confusion of Chen Xuan''s thoughts, one punch hit him heavily in the face At the right moment, Li Yunze''s angry voice came, "Chen Xuan, if anything happens to Jinxi, I will not let you go!" Chapter 635 Chen Xuan raised his hand, rubbed the blood spilled from the broken skin of his teeth, and then looked at Li Yunze with an angry face. Li Yunze was the same as the lion to fight. His hair stood up, and he had lived up to the evil charm of the past. "I''m not in the mood to fight with you..." Chen Xuan said coldly and leaned weakly against the wall. "Li Yunze, Jinxi, if anything, no one can hurt me!" At last, he bit his teeth. For Li Jinxi, he has been washing white as much as possible... But how to wash the blood on his body? What are you doing? They thought, he didn''t want to! He''s dead. It''s hard to say who owns his Jinxi. He doesn''t want to leave it to others because it''s so cheap! "Can anyone hurt Jinxi now?" Li Yunze roared and waved his fist at Chen Xuan again. Chen Xuan looked weak, but just as Li Yunze''s fist was about to reach him, he suddenly raised his hand and wrapped the attacking fist It seemed that he didn''t use his strength, but Li Yunze''s fist was confined in place and couldn''t move forward. "Li Yunze, fight with me... You''re not on the table yet!" Chen xuanleng hissed and shook off Li Yunze''s fist. The cold voice also came in time, "crazy enough, please calm down." Li Yunze gnashed his teeth. He knew in his heart, but he couldn''t control his emotions. "If you want Jinxi to be like this all the time, make a fuss!" Chen Xuan coldly took back his sight, took out his mobile phone and dialed the assistant''s phone, "start crisis public relations. I don''t want to see anything about me and Jinxi in any media..." Today, when Jinxi knew that he was a member of the Chen family in the Jianghu, they were outside. Although they didn''t see many people, it''s hard to guarantee that someone guessed something. They are both media people. This uproar doesn''t necessarily mean what to dig out! After hanging up the phone, Chen Xuan made a "hissing" sound. The punch just hit by Li Yunze was not light and had a little stamina. He couldn''t care about the pain on his face, but calmly dialed Gu Beichen again When Gu Beichen saw the call, he just glanced at Aunt Luo... He saw aunt Luo nodding slightly. He looked at the location of the kitchen and answered the phone. "Can things hold down?" Chen Xuan''s weak voice came. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and said calmly, "it depends on how you want to press!" "Try your best..." Chen Xuan didn''t say clearly. Gu Beichen was silent for a while and just said, "you should know that it''s difficult." "Now I can only try..." Chen Xuan closed his eyes and opened them with a worried look at the door of the emergency room. "OK." Gu Beichen arrived without hesitation. "Make up for it later!" Chen Xuan didn''t say much. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil became deep, "not for you." "It doesn''t matter..." Chen Xuan looked at Li Yunze next to his eyes. "Anyway, the purpose is the same." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and immediately asked, "how''s Jinxi?" Chen Xuan sighed deeply and didn''t speak Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Through the wireless wave, he could feel the low pressure from Chen Xuan. "You''ve been prepared for this for a long time, and it''s impossible to hide it for a lifetime..." he paused, and a trace of guilt crossed the bottom of his eyes. "Just, I''m sorry to mess up your steps." Chen Xuan still didn''t speak. After a long silence, youyou said, "you really owe me an explanation..." After the words fell, both sides were silent. They just said hello and hung up. I don''t know if it''s a coincidence or something. Jane Mo timely took the fruit plate and came out of the kitchen Aunt Luo followed closely. Gu Beichen glanced at her lightly, saw her nod slightly, and then got up to meet Jane mo. "You don''t have to stay at home with me..." Jane Mo turned the fruit wheel. "Shouldn''t you go and talk to Yunze now?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes Jane Mo smiled around Gu Beichen''s waist, "although I don''t know what happened, you don''t want to say, I don''t ask... Just, really want to have a wife and no friends?" "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen gently hugged Jian Mo and sighed, "I really hope you can be capricious and don''t be considerate." Jane Mo smiled, "I don''t want you to go around me alone..." Everyone has their own living space. She wants her husband to be around all the time, but she doesn''t want him to lose other feelings because of her Li Yunze''s importance to ah Chen, although she can''t compare But it was a kind of sincere affection. She didn''t want ah Chen to lose it. "Fool..." Gu Beichen scolded and kissed on Jian Mo''s head. "I''m not going now. It''s time for Yunze to calm down..." he let go of Jian Mo and sat down with her. "People can''t listen to anything when they are angry." Jane Mo thought about it, and saw that Gu Beichen had a plan in mind, so she didn''t say much. However, she didn''t expect that the matter was a little serious... Gu Beichen couldn''t solve it as she thought. I just thought that some wounds really hurt after tearing. Who can feel it without being in it ¡­¡­ In Huakang hospital, Li Jinxi was dignified because he had not come out for more than half an hour in the emergency room. When Li Jiyuan heard that Li Jinxi was admitted to the hospital, he hurried over... He saw Li Yunze looking at Chen Xuan prickly, and Chen Xuan leaned weakly against the wall with a pair of eyes staring at the emergency room. The atmosphere is a little treacherous, and the air is dignified as if it can''t circulate, which makes people''s heart explode. "Dad..." Li Yunze looked back and saw Li Jiyuan coming. His expression was complex. In addition to anger and worry, there were unclear emotions on his face. Chen Xuan also looked over and opened his mouth. He wanted to shout "Dad", but his voice came to his mouth and swallowed it back. Now, the most uncomfortable and disgusting thing about Li Jiyuan is that he called his father for more than two years, right? "How''s Jinxi?" Li Jiyuan went to Li Yunze and asked, "why did you come to the hospital?" Li Yunze shook his head, glanced at Chen Xuan and said nothing. Chen Xuan didn''t speak. He doesn''t know how Jinxi is now He is not a doctor. Jinxi was born in this medical family, but he has nothing to do with medicine. Anyway, at the moment, she can do nothing but wait for the doctor to come out. When Li Yunze came over, he didn''t see Li Jinxi. Naturally, he didn''t know what happened Just when the atmosphere became more and more dignified, the door of the examination room suddenly opened... The three people looked at it at the same time, and each looked nervous and worried. It''s not a doctor, it''s a nurse. "How''s Jinxi?" Li Yunze asked. Chapter 636 When the nurse saw Li Yunze and Li Jiyuan, she was stunned at first, and then hurried to say, "we should prepare the operating room." As soon as Li Yunze heard it, he couldn''t care about anything else. He had already stepped into the emergency room. Li Jiyuan is a person who has experienced great storms and waves. He is "calm". He didn''t ask the nurse about it, but just motioned her to arrange Chen Xuan only felt that something in his body was pulled out in an instant. That feeling was like something passing away from his body. The roller of the hospital bed rubbed against the ground and made a "clattering" sound. At the moment, such a sound fell into the ears of relatives, which was as ugly as a reminder. Li Yunze followed the hospital bed and told the nurse: "call Dr. Ge and let him come... Inform Dr. Wang to come to the operating room." He said, looked at Chen Xuan, ignored it, and hurried forward, "inform the blood bank to send 1000ccab plasma first and stand by outside the operating room!" On the hospital bed, Li Jinxi was unconscious Her face was pale without a bit of blood. At the moment, she didn''t have the appearance of the Queen''s breath in the past. She was like a falling feather, struggling in the dust. After hearing Li Yunze''s doctor, Li Jiyuan already knew something He began to tremble uncontrollably and clenched his hands hard, but he couldn''t control his continued trembling. Listening to Li Yunze''s words, Chen Xuan''s heart is about to stop beating Even if he didn''t know medicine, he knew what might have happened if Jinxi didn''t have a wound. "Do you know..." Li Jiyuan looked at Chen Xuan in a trembling voice, "Jinxi... Can''t get pregnant?" Chen Xuan had no way to think, but looked at Li Jiyuan stupidly. Li Jiyuan stared and grabbed Chen Xuan''s skirt with both hands. "Do you know that Jinxi really can''t get pregnant..." He seemed to be roaring with all his strength, and his whole face was red because of his anger. Chen Xuan''s eyes are dazed, even confused However, Li Jiyuan didn''t explain to him. He just threw him away and hurried to the floor of the operating room with heavy steps. "Chen Xuan, you say... We don''t want children, okay?" That night lying on the splint of the cruise ship, Li Jinxi used Chen Xuan''s leg as a pillow, looked at the stars and asked with a smile. "No, don''t..." Chen Xuan said casually, "you decide." "I''m serious?" Seeing that Chen Xuan was perfunctory, Li Jinxi immediately sat up and said, "just cross the world of two." Chen Xuan pulled Li Jinxi down, turned over and pressed on her, and said vaguely, "I''m serious... There''s a child who can''t tell you how to please me when you''re distracted?" His words were full of hot beans. It was obvious what he meant. "Coyote!" Li Jinxi pushed Chen Xuan away with a strange look. Chen Xuan didn''t notice either, but just lay on the deck. "I don''t have any thoughts about my children. If you don''t want it, don''t... it''s not perfunctory." "Then come back to my father and they ask you, what do you say?" Li Jinxi''s voice was a little lonely, but Chen Xuan didn''t think much. "Just say I can''t have a baby?" Chen Xuan raised his eyebrows and then turned his mouth. "Shit, if you say so... I''m ashamed!" "Can''t I be ashamed?" Li Jinxi was dissatisfied. Chen Xuan stopped and turned over again to press Li Jinxi under him. "Then I''m ashamed. You have to give me some compensation?" "If..." Li Jinxi''s words were interrupted by Chen Xuan''s actions before they started. "Hey... Chen Xuan, don''t touch there... Ah..." How happy he was at that moment, how painful Chen Xuan was at the moment. Jin Xi''s usual personality made him not think much about that night But now... Look at Li Yunze''s look, it''s not at all. It''s not that Jinxi doesn''t want children, but that her body can''t bear pregnancy Chen Xuan''s heart contracted sharply, which made his uncomfortable waist unable to straighten up... As if his heart would strike at any time. He didn''t know how he got to the operating room. He just sat there powerlessly, listening to the steps of the nurse and hurried in and out Li Jiyuan was also sitting outside. He majored in traditional Chinese medicine and couldn''t help at the moment. The most important thing is that there is his own daughter inside. He can''t calm down at the moment... Besides, Li Yunze and several attending doctors of Huakang are inside. "Dad..." Chen Xuan said in the end, "no matter what gratitude and resentment I had before, Jinxi I won''t let go." "She''s with you, and then it''s just pain!" Li Jiyuan said in a deep voice. Chen Xuan glanced at Li Jiyuan. "If you don''t come with me, you won''t be in pain?" Li Jiyuan frowned. His daughter knew that Jinxi wanted to be strong in everything. She never played the banner of Li family... Everything was her own efforts. The daughter looks very careless. In fact, she is very persistent in everything So is career, so is love! Now, it''s only Jinxi who can''t leave "Wait until Jinxi can get out of the operating room!" Li Jiyuan said bitterly, with a state of mind that I am in pain and you don''t feel better. Chen Xuan really changed his face, "what do you mean?" Li Jiyuan snorted coldly, "Jinxi''s body is cold, especially the uterus... It was brought out of the mother. Even if the Li family is a medical family, it can''t be well conditioned." He looked at Chen Xuan''s face and said with gnashing teeth, "the load of pregnancy on her body is not something she can bear... Abortion may kill her!" Chen Xuan''s face was so ugly that people couldn''t bear to look straight, "we have contraception!" "She wants to try and have a child with you..." roared Li Jiyuan. Chen Xuan felt that his body was suddenly empty, as if... His soul had gone out of his body. "Do you know what is the most painful for us?" Li Jiyuan now has no mind to think about the gratitude and resentment between the Li family and the Chen family. "Li family, most people are in medicine... Yunze is a genius in this field." Li Jiyuan laughed at himself, "what''s the use?" He closed his eyes powerlessly. "We saved a lot of people, but... We can''t keep our relatives safe!" Finally, he said it with his teeth What a ridiculous and sad thing that doctors can''t save their relatives? The outside is dignified, and the atmosphere in the operating room is even more tense. "Report the heart rate every ten seconds..." Li Yunze''s eyes focused, and his medical gloves were all bloodstained. He looked at Dr. Ge, "now change the position, your main knife and my deputy!" "OK..." Dr. Ge answered, motioned to Dr. Wang and began to change positions. In the neutral position of the shift, the nurse staring at the instrument suddenly exclaimed: "the patient''s heart rate stops..." Chapter 637 "The patient is bleeding heavily..." Then another nurse exclaimed. Dr. Ge frowned and looked at Li Yunze for fear that his patient brother would be unstable But obviously, she was too worried. Li Yunze looked at the instrument from time to time while calmly dealing with the wound "The patient recovers his heartbeat..." the instrument nurse said in surprise. "Blood transfusion!" After Dr. Ge duly explained to the nurse on one side, he looked at Li Yunze opposite, "ready to take out the fetal sac!" Li Yunze closed his eyes. When the sweat on his forehead was about to stay, the nurse assistant on one side had wiped it off Open again, Li Yunze has stabilized his mind and nodded, "let''s start!" The atmosphere passed second by second in the battle between instruments and body, mixed with the sound of nurses reporting heart rate Time, at this moment becomes tormented. People say that blessings never come together, and misfortunes never come singly Just when the atmosphere of Huakang hospital was dignified, another heavy thing happened. I don''t know whether it was an accident or a coincidence. Mo Shaochen went to prison with his front foot, and Xiao Jing got the news with his back foot. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing pushed open the study door and shouted anxiously, but when he saw Jian Mo, he quickly held back. "I''m going to draw the design..." Jian Mo didn''t burst Xiao Jing''s worry, said thoughtfully, and went out of the study. She didn''t eavesdrop, though, curious to death. However, when I came to the stairs, I instinctively looked in the direction of the study and felt a little heavy. Xiaoyan in her stomach felt her mother''s uneasiness and kicked her stomach "Good!" Jane Mo stroked her stomach, "mom is just a little worried, but... I believe that no matter what happens, Dad can solve it." Xiao Yan seemed to be comforted and gradually settled down Jane looked back, then went downstairs to the dining table and continued to work on the design drawings. In the study, Gu Beichen listened to Xiao Jing''s words, frowning more and more tightly, and then called Mo Shaochen... But no one answered. "Shaochen should have passed," Gu Beichen said. "Li Xiaoyue can''t have an accident." At the same time, he had got up. "Chen Shao, if you can''t, bring people out?" Xiao Jing pondered and said, "send it abroad first." Gu Beichen stopped and thought about Xiao Jing''s words "This is the only way now. I''m afraid it''s not safe in prison." Xiao Jingning said in a voice. The two people sent to protect Li Xiaoyue were killed... It can''t be a simple accident. "Go and have a look first..." Gu Beichen said, opening the study door and going out. There was movement upstairs. Jane Mo looked back reflexively It''s ok if you don''t see it. This view makes Gu Beichen''s heart heavier. The more she pretends to be calm, it can only prove that the more things she worries about Gu Beichen went downstairs. Xiao Jing went down and said, "I''ll wait outside." "You''re going out..." Jane Mo got up with a smile. "Will you come back for dinner in the evening?" "I can''t say at the moment." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo painfully. Jane Mo still smiled and even raised her eyebrows. "Then I won''t wait for you. You can work at ease... After eating, I''ll have a rest and go to bed." Gu Beichen nodded, "bored, just walk in the yard and don''t go out, huh?" Nod, "Jane, OK!" Gu Beichen told aunt Luo a few more words before leaving Jane Mo looked at his back. After leaving the door, she went to the French window and watched Gu Beichen''s car leave without looking back. I don''t know why. She always thinks something big is going to happen? However, for several months, she has been worried about what happened every day, but now there is only a quarrel between Li Yunze and ah Chen... Although she doesn''t know why. Jian Mo sighed quietly and continued to draw the design drawing Although, no mind. It''s not good for Yu Yan to distract her... That''s right. But sometimes, you want to transfer is one thing, can transfer, is another thing. Jane Mo''s mind is in a mess. She can''t draw the design drawing at all. She simply doesn''t draw it. She plans to brush the forum to pass the time. But as soon as I entered the forum, I saw the push message before I went to the design section. "Suspected Li Jinxi was admitted to the hospital..." after Jian Mo read reflexively, she immediately stared and hurried in. Inside, there is a picture of Chen Xuan coming down from the car with Li Jinxi in his arms. There is a cross in the background... Although it is vague, acquaintances can still recognize who it is. Some people think it''s like the following comments, others don''t think it''s like... After reading a few, the Navy appeared and began to guide people to think about others. For entertainment posts, the more people stop the speculation that people will rebound, such guidance sometimes works. Of course, Jane Mo is not in the mood to pay attention to these She hurriedly called Li Yunze. She always felt that Li Jinxi''s affair was the root of his quarrel with Gu Beichen. Call, no one answered Jian Mo didn''t know Chen Xuan''s phone number. Finally, he could only send a text message to Li Yunze: How''s Jinxi? I''m worried. Can you call me back when you see the information? Looking at the text message sent, Jane Mo thought and sent another one: no matter what quarrel you and ah Chen have, Jinxi and I are friends. I''m worried about her... You have no right to decide to give up my concern for her! After sending a text message, Jian Mo began to wait for Li Yunze''s phone... After waiting for less than half an hour, she called again uneasily, but no one answered. "Are you doing surgery..." Jane Mo whispered suspiciously, feeling that Li Yunze was not the kind of person to avoid. ¡­¡­ Li Jinxi''s operation lasted for two hours. When Dr. Ge personally sutured Li Jinxi''s abdominal wound, Li Yunze''s body suddenly softened. "Li Shao, I''ll deal with the rest. Go and have a rest?" Dr. Ge glanced at the cloud and continued to move his hands. In the whole process, no one was nervous about Li Yunze. To operate on your relatives, you need to bear not only psychological pressure, but also mental pressure. Fortunately... Although it was dangerous, it was dangerous in the end. Li Yunze nodded. After leaving the operating room, he withdrew his surgical clothes and gloves, and then entered the operating room. The mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. He took it out and saw that it was Gu Beichen''s... His sight was a little muddy and didn''t answer. After the disconnection, he looked at the dozens of missed calls and two short messages above, and advanced the short message interface. It''s all Jane Mo''s After reading it, he sat down powerlessly and asked the nurse to say something to Li Jiyuan outside and call Jane Mo back "Yunze, how''s Jinxi?" Jane Mo''s voice came anxiously. Li Yunze lay back in his chair, "there is no danger for the time being." Jane Mo bit her lips and wanted to ask what was going on, "she..." "No big deal!" Li Yunze slowly opened his bloodshot eyes, "don''t worry..." "Yunze..." "The matter between me and Beichen will be settled between us." Li Yunze''s voice slowed down. "You are pregnant. Don''t worry about these. There are always some things between men that can''t be held back, okay?" Jane Mo''s nose was sour in an instant, and even her eyes became red She didn''t know what happened, but Yunze and ah Chen quarreled. It must be a big deal. But even so, Li Yunze tried to suppress her anger at ah Chen and comfort her in turn because she was pregnant! Such a brother, such a friend... She doesn''t want ah Chen to lose! Chapter 638 Jane Mo took a breath secretly, stabilized her mood and asked, "you have time. Can I have a drink with you?" Li Yunze rubbed his swollen temples, "turn around." "OK..." Jane Mo answered without saying anything more and hung up the phone. Li Yunze is a famous doctor. He said Jinxi was all right. She believed him But Jane Mo was still worried. There have always been a lot of dirty things between rich families. I don''t know what the Li family and the Chen family have in the past... But anyway, Chen Xuan and Jinxi shouldn''t bear it? Jane Mo lies on the sofa, her eyes drooping slightly on her bulging stomach Huai Xiaoyan is more tired than a milk bag. A large part of the reason is that her stomach is bigger than at that time. At this moment, I leaned, and my sight was blocked by my stomach. "Xiao Yan..." Jane moru lowered her lip. "You will come to this world in more than two months... Mom''s only hope is that everything is well. Don''t take the road of milk bag." A milk bag, now the situation is enough to make Jane Mo feel distressed If Xiao Yan can''t be with them for irreversible reasons, she feels she can''t stand it. She got up slowly. Jane Mo went upstairs, took a coat and put it on. She didn''t leave except the villa. She just walked around the yard. I don''t know why. I always feel a little upset. That feeling makes her a little upset It was as if something would happen, but she was thinking alone. Jane Mo sat down on the bench, and her sight fell in front without focus She couldn''t help taking out her mobile phone and wanted to call Gu Beichen, but when she was about to dial out, she pressed it off again. "It''s said that pregnant women love to think wildly, and some of them can have a whim..." Jane Mo murmured, "don''t bother yourself!" ¡­¡­ Los Angeles prison. Li Xiaoyue has been taken to a reception room alone. Mo Shaochen looks at her in shock. Deep in her eyes, something overflows Silence! Li Xiaoyue did not speak, nor did Mo Shaochen. The mood of one drooping eyes and one fundus is becoming more and more complex At the right time, a walkie talkie message came from the earphone stuffed in the ear of the policeman standing aside. The policeman pressed the talk button. "OK, I see." Then he looked at Mo Shaochen, "lawyer Mo, the director asked you to go to his office..." he looked at Li Xiaoyue, "24985, wait here!" Mo Chen can''t help you. He frowns and looks at you. He can''t help you. Who can do it Li Xiaoyue pulled down the corner of her mouth with self mockery, "you go..." Mo Shaochen''s eyes were deep. Without saying anything, he got up and left the reception room... And went straight to the office of the director of the prison. When he opened the door, he saw Gu Beichen sitting opposite the director indifferently, holding a cigarette in his hand. When he came in, he just looked at him. "Lawyer Mo, sit..." the director was polite to Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen looked suspiciously at Gu Beichen and then looked at the director "Chen Shao has gone through all the relevant procedures," the director said generally. "Now as long as lawyer Mo signs as the litigant''s litigation lawyer..." Mo Shaochen took the folder pushed by the director, looked at it quickly, frowned secretly, looked at Gu Beichen and waited for him to explain. "Sign." Gu Beichen had no superfluous words, but spoke calmly. Mo Shaochen didn''t ask. He took the pen, signed his name and handed it to the director The director confirmed that there was nothing wrong, and then pressed the internal telephone, "the lawyer of the party submitted an appeal. According to the process and evidence, Li Xiaoyue was released immediately... You deal with it." After the other party answered, the director hung up the phone, "Chen Shao, next..." "Don''t worry, it should be yours." Gu Beichen took a cigarette indifferently and flicked the ash with his eyes down. "There will be a list in the court by tomorrow at the latest..." "Tomorrow?" The director secretly gritted his teeth, "OK! Chen Shao works, I''m very relieved..." Gu Beichen raised his eyes and glanced at the director of his eyes. Then he twisted out the cigarette butts in the ashtray, put down his overlapping legs and got up, "please..." "Hehe, where does Chen Shao say?" The director smiled, "it was also an accident. It has nothing to do with Li Xiaoyue." Gu Beichen didn''t say anything more, just nodded, then took the lead to lift his step and walked out After Xiao Jing and Mo Shaochen went out, he looked back and left. "Beichen?" Outside, Mo Shaochen frowned and looked at Gu Beichen. "If a program like you is found, not only Li Xiaoyue will be sentenced directly, but you..." "Do you think I will give others such a chance?" Gu Beichen asked. Mo Shaochen was speechless. Gu Beichen turned around, took his pocket with both hands and looked at Mo Shaochen deeply. After a while, he slowly said, "Shaochen, if you can''t do it... Don''t give her any hope." Mo Shaochen immediately frowned, "I..." "You don''t have to explain to me." Gu Beichen turned aside coldly and looked at the sky red by the sunset. "You are a calm person. There are some things we don''t say. You know better than anyone in your heart..." Mo Shaochen felt heavy for no reason. Gu Beichen glanced at him, his eagle eyes deep and bottomless, "but this thorn will be pulled out sooner or later... You know better than anyone whether it will affect Li Xiaoyue or become a contradiction." Mo Shaochen still didn''t speak, but was silent. "I have something else to do," Gu Beichen converged. "Li Xiaoyue will arrange for you first. I will arrange for her to go abroad these days..." "Good!" Mo Shaochen answered. Gu Beichen glanced at him again. Without saying anything, he got on the car and left the prison. "Chen Shao, go back to the villa, or..." Xiao Jing asked after getting on the bus. "Go to Huakang!" Gu Beichen spoke calmly. Xiao Xiao nodded, started the car and drove to Huakang Hospital It was dark and the lights were on. It was supposed to be time for the family to eat around the table and watch TV... The VIP floor of Huakang hospital had a dignified and depressing atmosphere. "You go..." Li Jinxi, who just woke up, was numb to the pain in his body and heart, "I don''t want to see you!" Chen Xuan stood there without moving or talking. "You go..." Li Jinxi clenched his teeth and roared with great effort. Because of the force, she tore the wound of her abdomen, and the pain wrinkled her whole face. Li Jiyuan sat on the sofa, didn''t speak, but his face was not good. Li Yunze looked at Chen Xuan coldly. "Don''t you see that Jinxi is in pain? Chen Xuan, go out!" "I won''t go out!" Chen Xuan gritted his teeth, "if I go out now, we''ll really be finished..." Chapter 639 "Do you think you and Jinxi are still possible?" Li Yunze sneered. Chen Xuan''s sight slid slowly from Li Jinxi''s face to Li Yunze. The bottom of his eyes was full of fierce anger, "otherwise?" He gritted his teeth and squeezed out the gap between his teeth word by word. "Is it what you want to see Jinxi can''t get out of pain?" "...." Li Yunze was immediately silent and didn''t know how to refute. He and Jinxi are twins. He knows Jinxi best She has been strong since she was a child. It is very difficult for anyone who can get into her eyes. Chen Xuan''s appearance was an accident, but I have to admit... It''s also destiny. Now the situation is that whether Jinxi and Chen Xuan are together or leave him, it is painful "Chen Xuan, you go out!" Li Jinxi said weakly, "even if you don''t leave, we''re finished..." she closed her eyes and covered the moisture in the bottom of her eyes. Although she knows that it can''t be blamed on Chen Xuan But what can she do? Mom, and brother... These are thorns in the heart of the Li family. "I won''t divorce you," Chen Xuan said bitterly, never having the firmness. "Li Jinxi, if you have to suffer, let''s suffer together... If you want a divorce, Ho, I want to see, I don''t want to, how can you get rid of the fact that it''s my wife." In spite of Li Jiyuan who suddenly stood up and Li Yunze''s anger, he turned around, opened the door of the ward and went out Suddenly, his action of closing the door stopped, and he closed it just once. Gu Beichen stood not far from the front with his pocket in one hand, followed by Xiao Jing. Chen Xuan looked back at the ward door closed by himself, motioned to Gu Beichen, and then walked to the staircase Many flowers are planted on the rooftop of the inpatient department, but as winter is coming, except chrysanthemums, they have basically withered... It seems that it is astringent under depression. "I bear the brunt. Should you talk about..." Chen Xuan looked at Gu Beichen coldly, "... What''s the relationship between you and Mo palace, or Shi Shaoqin?" Gu Beichen glanced at Chen Xuan and then walked slowly to the fence... Eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly, looked at the neon at night, and his mouth was cold. Chen Xuan didn''t urge either, but obviously, he didn''t intend to give up. "Jinxi should have told you," Gu Beichen spoke softly, and there was not much emotion in his voice. "I was kidnapped." "Is it related to Mo palace?" Chen Xuan doubted, but he was obviously sure. Gu Beichen continued, "yes..." he answered, "I''m sorry to involve the Chen family... But Chen Xuan, you should know that this matter will break out sooner or later." "But do you fucking know that Jinxi is pregnant!" Chen Xuan almost roared angrily. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and turned around, "Yunze, they didn''t tell you that Jinxi can''t get pregnant?" "..." Chen Xuan twitched at the corners of his mouth and shook his hand angrily. After a while, Chen Xuan took a breath secretly, then gritted his teeth and asked, "I don''t ask what happened between you and Shi Shaoqin. I want to know now. How are you going to solve it?" "I won''t meddle in the affairs on the road!" Gu Beichen said directly. Chen Xuan gritted his teeth, "what do you solve?" "No matter what I solve now, the problem between you and Jinxi has already been solved..." Gu Beichen said coldly, "can the situation be worse?" Chen Xuan''s hand clenched more tightly and made a ''quack'' sound, "it really can''t be worse." The Chen family is on the road. No matter what he does, he can''t return to heaven now As for him and Jinxi, he won''t let go anyway. Shit! It''s enough for him to marry a wife and have a grudge against his family "Wrong?" Chen Xuan suddenly looked at Gu Beichen in disbelief. "I haven''t heard of anyone who can escape from the Mo palace so far..." he frowned and looked up and down at Gu Beichen. "Are you telling me that you not only escaped, but Shi Shaoqin can''t help you now?" "What do you think?" Gu Beichen sneered coldly and walked to the rooftop door, "I advise you to worry about the things between you and Jinxi now. As for the things between me and Shi Shaoqin... You can''t worry." Chen Xuan looked at Gu Beichen''s back and hissed coldly, "the Chen family is fishing for the wrong door, although sooner or later it will encounter such a situation... But isn''t it because of you this time?" Gu Beichen stopped and looked back. "Then?" Chen Xuan frowned. "Aren''t you afraid that the Chen family has ideas?" "Ho..." Gu Beichen sneered and looked back. "I even provoked Shi Shaoqin. Who else can''t I provoke?" The domineering words overflow the thin lips with a cold breath Chen Xuan was shocked. He had never seen such Gu Beichen. Even in the shopping mall, he made a decision by killing and never gave his opponent a chance to breathe, but now... He seems to see blood? After the shock, Gu Beichen has left his sight Chen Xuan suddenly smiled with self mockery, "how can a person who climbs out of hell be clean?" ¡­¡­ After eating, Jane Mo took a rest, took a bath and leaned against the bed to read. Gu Beichen is afraid of her boredom. Recently, he found many out of print architectural design books for her to kill time Unfortunately, I can''t read the book with too much thought. In the past, I could complain with Li Xiaoyue. Now... I don''t even have a speaker. Just thinking, the voice of SMS arrival came from the mobile phone. Jane Mo took it and opened it. It was sent by Gu Beichen. "I guess it will take a while. You go to bed first, huh?" Jane Mo''s mouth unconsciously raised a smile and an uneasy heart. Because of this short message, she was a lot more stable at once. She turned her fingers and replied: I''m already in bed. I''ll go to bed after reading. Gu Beichen: Yes! Gu Beichen: I''ll take you to see Xiao Yue tomorrow, huh? At the sight of Jian Mo, a smile filled her eyes: I was just thinking about Xiao Yue... Husband, how can I love you if you know me so well? Gu Beichen looked at the message with deep eyes, smiled and replied to the past: your safety is the most direct love for me. Jane Mo: for you, I will be all right. Gu Beichen looked at the text message and his sight became deeper and deeper She knows him, that''s all. After receiving his mobile phone, Gu Beichen''s vision fell in front of him Xiao Jing came over with a heavy face, "said Li Shao, afraid of Miss Jinxi''s physical problems, so he didn''t come over." Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned, "it seems that we can only wait." "Don''t be angry, or..." "He will come!" Gu Beichen interrupted Xiao Jing, "unless he really doesn''t want our relationship for so many years..." Chapter 640 No matter how many things happened in the night, it was just talk with irrelevant people. Chen Xuan and Li Jinxi''s affairs, because Huaye, emperor and Li family shot at the same time, the news media naturally didn''t want to offend so many people at the same time and suppressed the press releases. As for the unclear photos and conjectures on the Los Angeles forum, they were distorted by the marketing number and the Navy, and even deleted by the moderator because they were torn and forced. Everything happened quickly, but it was not slow to disappear. Li Yunze drove his car and shuttled through the streets at night The direction is actually a mid level villa. Just after he refused Xiao Jing to see Gu Beichen, others had left Huakang... The destination was also very clear. Some questions can only be answered by asking experienced people. "Dong Dong!" Jane Mo put down the book, "come in..." Aunt Luo came in and put the milk on the bedside table. "Young lady, let''s have an early rest at night? Reading so late is bad for our eyes..." Jian Mo smiled and raised her eyebrows. "I''m doing prenatal education... I love reading, and Xiao Yan likes it when I look back, and then learn design with me." "When you were pregnant with young master Jie, you went to school every day. Why didn''t you see young master Jie like design?" Aunt Luo skimmed her lips. After listening to this, Jane Mo was stunned, then pretended to be dissatisfied and said, "aunt Luo, you always tell the truth and don''t worry about other people''s mood..." Aunt Luo smiled and shook her head kindly and spoiled. "You... Drink the milk and go to bed early!" "Good luck!" Jane answered and wanted to get the milk. At the right time, a telephone ring came downstairs. Aunt Luo frowned, "who''s calling so late..." said, and the man had turned and walked downstairs. After a while, aunt Luo came back "Young lady, Li Shao came and said he wanted to see you!" "Huh?" Jane was stunned, "Yunze?" Aunt Luo nodded Jane Mo frowned and wondered, but she didn''t think much, "I''ll change my clothes..." she said, put down the empty cup and got out of bed, "aunt Luo, make him a cup of coffee first." "OK..." aunt Luo answered and left first. After Jane Mo changed her clothes, she went downstairs... She saw Li Yunze standing at the French window with his hands in his pockets. Hearing the footsteps, Li Yunze turned back and looked at Jian Mo strangely. "What are you doing standing? Sit down!" Jane Mo sat down on the sofa and said with a smile, "I can''t stand with you..." Li Yunze pulled at the corners of his mouth, with an ugly smile, came over and sat down on one side. Aunt Luo put down the coffee and Jane Mo said, "aunt Luo, go to bed..." Aunt Luo looked at Li Yunze and nodded. "Aunt Luo..." Li Yunze said when Aunt Luo turned around, "I''ll come here. Don''t tell Beichen." Aunt Luo smiled, nodded and went to rest without saying anything There were only two people in the villa who spoke in an awkward and treacherous atmosphere. "Come to you so late. Beichen knows and has to beat me!" Li Yunze took the lead in opening his mouth. Jian Mo chuckled, "Li Shao, who has always been evil, doesn''t open this opening speech wisely..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth and sighed, "Beichen is waiting for me in the hospital leisure hall." "But you came to me!" Jane answered. Li Yunze looked at Jian Mo and nodded "Is Jinxi really okay?" Jane Mo doesn''t intend to circle with Li Yunze, who is suffering from tangled disease at the moment. "It''s no big deal, but it''s not very good." Frown a little, "what happened to Jane?" Li Yunze looked at Jian Mo and gradually his sight became deep Jane Mo didn''t care at first, but after being watched for a while, she felt a little fluffy. "You almost know the cause and effect of your father''s affair?" Li Yunze asked with some hesitation. Jane Mo nodded in her heart. "Li''s family is similar to Chen''s family..." Li Yunze paused and then mocked himself, "how can it be similar?" "Did you come today to ask me..." Jane Mo seemed to understand something, "what happened between Dad and ah Chen''s mother, and between mom and ah Chen''s father... No matter who is right or wrong, why do I care about being with ah Chen?" Li Yunze knew that Jian Mo was a smart woman, but she didn''t expect to see through his tangles Nodding, he said heavily, "things between our two families are more complicated." "So what?" Asked Jane mo. "Huh?" Li Yunze doesn''t understand. Jane Mo moved her body and found a comfortable posture. "No matter how complex, it''s all the things of the previous generation or the past... No one has the right to let people now bear the things of the past." "But how can there be no burden in my heart?" Li Yunze was a little excited. "Burden?" Jane Mo sneered, "if you bear it, there will be no burden?" "..." Li Yunze was silent when asked. Jian Mo took the habitual caress and said, "Yunze, I don''t know what happened, but Jinxi was admitted to the hospital... If such a burden is not enough to wake you up, there will only be more sadness." Li Yunze was silent and his face was full of tangles. "In fact, it''s never others who don''t let go, but themselves." Jian Mo glanced out. Xu was about to enter the winter. Under the night light, it was even bleak and fierce. "Whether it''s Chen Xuan and Jinxi, or you and ah Chen, love, friendship... And even family affection, which one doesn''t need mutual understanding?" Jian Mo took back his eyes and looked at Li Yunze. "You came to me because I have experienced and can understand... Then I will tell you that I have never doubted ah Chen. When I decide to spend my whole life with him, I will try to look forward... I think my father won''t expect me to lose ah Chen because of him." Her eyes were firm. "Others can say I''m looking for a reason for myself, so what? After all, others are not me! My happiness, even my family and friends... Can only be maintained by myself, and no one can help you maintain it." Li Yunze''s heart tip began to tremble. He looked at Jian Mo in some horror It seems that I have never known this woman. She is smart, but her greatest wisdom is to have a clear mind and know what she wants to do and what she wants! "In this world, others can help you with anything except yourself!" Jane Mo said more firmly, "a word of ''love'' can''t help you." Li Yunze looked at Jian Mo and said, "but..." "No, but!" Jian Mo interrupted Li Yunze, "ah Chen went to the hospital to wait for you. He even left me at home alone. Why?" Chapter 641 Li Yunze frowned and didn''t answer. He just looked at Jian mo... Waiting for her to continue. "Because you are equally important..." Jane Mo said firmly, "just as important to him as I am." Jian Mo sighed slightly, with a blurred voice, "Yunze, I am love to him, and you are brotherhood... Two feelings coexist without any contradiction." Li Yunze was a little discouraged and even had a shortness of breath. Jane Mo narrowed her eyes. That feeling made Li Yunze seem to see Gu Beichen Calm, wise, know what you want! "Then, your kinship with Jinxi, the love between Jinxi and Chen Xuan... With your brotherhood with Beichen," Jian Mo asked slowly and word by word, "which is more important to you in the things that have passed away?" Li Yunze was completely silent, and every word of Jian Mo poked into his heart... There was no refutation or refutation. "Yunze..." Jian Mo sighed, "why did you come to me so late?" Li Yunze looked at Jian Mo blankly and still didn''t speak. Jian Mo looked at this with some pain and was praised as a genius by the medical community. "That''s because you don''t want to give up your feelings with ah Chen... It''s too rare for a rich family to treat each other with such sincerity... Isn''t it?" "Don''t you ask me why I''m so angry?" Li Yunze gradually calmed down. Jane Mo hooked her lips and said with a smile, "you want to say, I''d like to listen... But I don''t want to inquire. It''s your scar. I have no right to tear it." After a pause, she said again, "you advised me not to ask ah Chen''s past. In fact... It''s a truth, isn''t it?" "Is Beichen going to tell you?" Li Yunze asked again. Jane Mo nodded. "He said he would tell me when Xiao Yan was born." At the same time, Jane Mo dropped her eyes and her eyes fell on the ring Under the colored glass light, the drill face reflected a faint light, which confused people''s sight. Jane Mo doesn''t know why. She can always think about the secret in the ring She''s so nervous. Have you seen too many detective films? Li Yunze followed Jian Mo''s line of sight and looked at the ring on her finger. His lips moved and didn''t say anything. Jane Mo raised her eyes. "I''m a good listener..." she smiled. "Maybe some words will be easier to say." Li Yunze rubbed his swollen temples and lay lazily on the sofa, looking up at the chandelier. His sight gradually became black "Jin Xi and I have another brother, who is five years older than us!" After a long time, Li Yunze slowly said, "my current achievements, it''s no exaggeration to say, are already the leaders in the medical field... However, compared with my brother, I''m not a grade worse." Jian Mo was surprised to dilate her pupils. First, she didn''t expect Li Yunze to have a brother. Second, she couldn''t imagine... What a person smarter than him would be like! Li Yunze looked sideways, because after facing the light, Jian Mo became black, "he was escorted to Oxford at the age of 12, focusing on clinical medicine and Pharmacy..." Speaking of this, Li Yunze was silent, and the memory was gradually replaced by pain. "When he was 14 years old, he won the Nobel Prize in medicine..." Li Yunze restrained his eyes and gradually spilled ridicule on his face. "But that year, when he was most energetic, he was taken away by the Chen family." Jane Mo frowned in an instant, as if she were confused. "Because if my brother''s award-winning project was applied to the refining of poison samples, their profits could not be estimated..." Li Yunze''s voice gradually became empty. Next, Jian Mo seemed to know what had happened without Li Yunze saying. "My brother doesn''t want to..." Li Yunze''s pain is becoming more and more intense. "The Chen family grabbed his mother and used it to..." "Stop talking!" Jian Mo''s heart tip began to tremble and interrupted Li Yunze''s words. Li Yunze also painfully closed his eyes... Even his hands trembled uncontrollably. "My mother died and my brother was injected with poison, which completely destroyed..." Li Yunze bit his teeth and slowly opened his eyes. "Finally, he committed suicide! He was only 15 years old, right in front of me and Jinxi..." Li Yunze''s eyes turned scarlet and his voice became pathetic and painful. "He killed himself with the poison he refined and the only test product..." Without warning, Jane Mo''s eyes turned red at once, and her tears overflowed uncontrollably and fell "Jian Mo," Li Yunze looked at Jian Mo with scarlet eyes and wet eyes, "you said, this situation... How can Jinxi continue with Chen Xuan?" Jane Mo covered her mouth and tears'' Susu ''fell down Li Yunze looked at her like this, with guilt in his eyes, "I shouldn''t have told you this..." Jane Mo couldn''t help crying sadly. In the case of her mother, she couldn''t stand leaving in front of herself What''s more, the proud son of heaven committed suicide in front of Yunze, who is only ten years old? "What about Jinxi?" Jane asked, "why do they have to bear these things?" Li Yunze closed his eyes again and covered the moisture from the bottom of his eyes. "Jane Mo, do you still think they should be together now?" "All I know is that they shouldn''t be allowed to bear -" Jian Mo roared and cried more fiercely, "Yunze, hate, can''t solve the problem... Isn''t it? Why let the pain continue, why can''t all the pain end from now on?" Li Yunze opened his eyes and looked at Jian Mo, "if Beichen experiences the same thing... How do you do it?" "I only know that I love him..." Jian Mo suddenly stood up and roared uncontrollably. "No matter what problem, escaping will never solve the problem." Li Yunze also stood up and looked at Jian Mo with complicated eyes Clearly know that she can''t have too much emotional fluctuation now, but he still can''t control himself. "Are you still in the mood to worry about me?" Jane Mo stared at her red eyes, "do you know the purpose of your coming tonight?" "..." Li Yunze frowned, "Jian Mo......" "I''m sad because I love you and Jinxi!" Jane Mo gritted her teeth and said, "Jinxi is my friend, and you are Beichen''s valued brother, okay?" Li Yunze''s heart seemed to be crushed by a stone. His shortness of breath caused his chest to rise and fall "Yunze, Jinxi is already in great pain..." Jian Mo cried. "As relatives, how can you bear to embarrass Chen Xuan and make her more painful..." Chapter 642 Something exploded in Li Yunze''s mind. He looked at Jian Mo and couldn''t react for a long time Jane Mo sucked her nose and wiped her tears fiercely. She didn''t care at all. Because she exerted too much force, her eyes hurt. "Sorry..." Li Yunze drooped his shoulders, "Jane Mo, thank you..." Looking at Jian Mo''s sad appearance, Li Yunze felt guilty at the bottom of his eyes. This is not his original intention, although... He really needs to find her urgently and wants to hear what she thinks about her father and Beichen. "Go to bed earlier..." Li Yunze''s voice dried up. "I''ll call Beichen back." The implication is that he will not escape, although... Things may not be solved. Jane Mo endured her tears and nodded... She didn''t say anything. Li Yunze opened his mouth and wanted to explain, but even if he told her not to think about Jian Mo''s situation at the moment, it was impossible. Finally, he simply didn''t say anything, just nodded and left with Jane Mo''s eyes. The car is not as eager as when it came... But it is still heavy. Li Yunze stood at the door of the hospital leisure hall, watching his hands copy his pockets, standing in front of the window with his back to his Gu Beichen, and his heart was more heavy. Late at night... There was no one in the lounge except the service staff and them. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing whispered. Gu Beichen slowly turned around, facing Li Yunze''s line of sight, and no one spoke. Li Yunze stepped forward, "I went to find Jian mo..." "Bang!" "Hissing..." Just as Li Yunze''s words fell, Gu Beichen gave him a punch mercilessly, and immediately... The attendants on duty sucked out their voices one by one. Xiao Jing stepped back and looked at the two people indifferently, leaving them enough space. Without any words, Li Yunze reached out to wipe the blood from the corners of his mouth and waved a fist to Gu Beichen In the lightning flint room, in such a large leisure hall, the atmosphere suddenly became dignified and tense because of the fists of two people. Xiao Jing simply leaned against the pillar and looked at you with his arms around his chest. Gu Beichen and Li Yunze shook their heads The battle lasted for more than ten minutes before Gu Beichen and Li Yunze separated after punching each other on the cheek in the form of "you die and I hurt"! "Li Yunze, Jian Mo, if there''s anything, our brother doesn''t have to do..." Gu Beichen said gnashing his teeth. Li Yunze glanced sideways at him and didn''t say anything. He just turned and pulled up a chair that was kicked to the ground and sat down. His breath was fluffy and said, "when did you know?" Gu Beichen took the paper towel handed over by Xiao Jing and wiped the blood from the broken skin at the corner of his mouth, "not long before Jane Mo came back." "Back from England?" Li Yunze is sure. Gu Beichen nodded and pulled a chair to sit down. "Chen Xuan basically washed white. He didn''t start a family when he was a child. He was in the Kent family..." he felt guilty in the bottom of his eyes. "In fact, it was my fault." If he had not used the power of the Chen family, Shi Shaoqin might not have moved his mind to the Chen family and then exposed the matter. Otherwise, with Chen Xuan''s intelligence, it may not be impossible to hide it. Li Yunze clenched his hand, resisted the impulse to wave Gu Beichen''s fist again, and said gnashing his teeth: "Gu Beichen, if it weren''t for our relationship for so many years and knowing the meaning of Shi Shaoqin to you, our brother, we really can''t do it anymore!" Then he stood up and looked at Gu Beichen coldly. He turned and wanted to leave After walking a few steps, he stopped, "Jane Mo probably can''t sleep. Go back!" Then he glanced back slightly, "Beichen, thank Jane Mo for me." Gu Beichen stood up, like a carved handsome face, without too much expression. "This woman is worthy of your love..." Li Yunze looked back and looked ahead. "I''m happy for you!" After the distant words fell, Li Yunze glanced back slightly, then raised his step and left with big steps ¡­¡­ Jane Mo couldn''t sleep. She simply went to the kitchen and planned to make some late nights to wait for Gu Beichen. The bell has struck twelve o''clock, and the surrounding silence makes the wind particularly strange. Gu Beichen opened the door, looked around, changed his shoes and went upstairs There''s no one in the bedroom! With a slight frown, Gu Beichen went to the study to have a look, and finally went to the room to be made into a baby room... There was no one. There was a sound downstairs, as if it were a broken sound Gu Beichen didn''t even have time to think, but his consciousness drove his instinct down the stairs and ran to the kitchen Jian Mo was surprised to see Gu Beichen. "When did you come back?" Gu Beichen looked at the broken plate beside Jian Mo, frowned and said, "don''t move!" Then he went to get a broom and dustpan and carefully cleaned up the debris on the ground. "Why are you so careless?" Gu Beichen frowned and saw that all around Jian Mo''s eyes were red and a little swollen. He was distressed again. Jane Mo said with a smile, "I just want to make you some supper. When I just put something on, I accidentally rubbed the plate on the ground..." she said with great ease, "this should be a normal accident in normal life?" Gu Beichen took Jian Mo in his arms. "Mo''er, I know you''re uncomfortable. Don''t disguise yourself in order to make me not sad, okay?" The smile on the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth became deeper and deeper. She circled Gu Beichen''s waist and said softly, "I''m very sad, but I''m not pretending... I''ll be happy only if I work hard and love you." Gu Beichen''s heart trembled because he was moved. He slightly let go of Jian Mo and didn''t say anything... He just kissed her hard. Yunze said she deserved his love! In fact, he was lucky to get her love. The sentimental kiss suddenly ignited the temperature in the kitchen to the top. Each other can only use this way to tell each other the importance in each other''s hearts "Yiyi... Yiyi..." Suddenly, a strange voice came and broke the two people who were about to lose control. Gu Beichen let go of Jian Mo and didn''t think about what the sound was... He heard Jian Mo scream. "Oh, I cook porridge..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and he saw Jian Mo holding his stomach and walking to the stove plate urgently but carefully "Hissing" came. Jane Mo forgot to wrap the lid of the casserole with something because she was too anxious and burned her hand a little... She pinched her earlobe and went to get the rag on one side. Looking at her movements, Gu Beichen didn''t move, but his eyes became deep. His thin lips were holding a smile that belonged to family fun and said, "being scalded is also a normal accident in normal life?" Chapter 643 Jane Mo was stunned and then glanced, "for a person who can''t cook, can you understand such a normal accident?" Gu Beichen listened and frowned slightly, with dissatisfaction in the bottom of his eyes. Well, he knows he''s been despised for cooking Although he works hard, he can only cook some simple breakfast now... As for cooking, he can''t handle it yet. Seeing that he was a little depressed, Jane Mo looked back with a smile, then turned down the fire and continued to boil for a while. She cleaned up the porridge spilled from the lower stove and washed the dishcloth before returning to Gu Beichen Gu Beichen was about to speak, and suddenly he saw the bruised corner of his mouth. Just now I didn''t know whether it was because it was not obvious, or whether Gu Beichen held it too fast and kissed it too accurately... She didn''t find it. Gu Beichen felt Jian Mo''s sight, slightly raised his eyebrow and said, "you kissed me!" "..." when Jane Mo heard this, the corners of her mouth twitched, "Mr. Gu, you''re serious nonsense, there''s no one..." Gu Beichen gently raised the corners of his mouth, a faint smile, instantly spread across Junyan and reached the bottom of his eyes. Jane Mo didn''t ask much. Sometimes it''s easy for men to solve problems... Naturally, it''s also very violent. "You go and take those small dishes out, and then come in and bring porridge." Jane Mo pointed to some small dishes she made on the glass platform at that time. "Yes, my wife..." Gu Beichen answered the voice of evil spirit and kissed Jane Mo quickly at the corner of her mouth. Then she turned around and calmly went to serve the dishes. The smile at the corners of Jane Mo''s mouth was like dyed honey, sweet from the corners of her mouth to her heart. After Gu Beichen went out with the dishes, she went to get a bowl of porridge, put it on the tray, turned off the fire, held her waist and walked out In the early morning night, the sounds of eating and talking came from time to time in such a big villa. They were all irrelevant... But they were particularly warm. ¡­¡­ Li Xiaoyue stood in front of the window, looked at the neon under the ink night and sighed gently. When Mo Shaochen came out of his study, he saw her thin back and frowned slightly, "why don''t you sleep?" Li Xiaoyue turns around. The woman who used to be like a queen now looks haggard like the sand left in the dust, which will be blown away at any time "I want to see Mo Mo before I leave." Li Xiaoyue walked over and took the water cup handed over by Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen took another cup and poured water for himself. "Beichen should arrange..." Li Xiaoyue sat down and didn''t speak. "Have you ever hated her?" Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue with deep but sharp eyes and asked. Li Xiaoyue pulled the corners of her mouth, held the glass in her hands, looked at the reflection in the water... I know he said she was Jian Mo! "It''s a lie to say that she hasn''t been into a dead end at all... But I don''t blame her." Mo Shaochen sat down opposite. "Although things started because of her, it has nothing to do with her." "I know..." Li Xiaoyue raised her eyes, looked at Mo Shaochen and asked with self mockery, "elder martial brother, what kind of person am I in your eyes? Who will blame others for my misfortune?" Mo Shaochen frowned slightly and didn''t answer. Li Xiaoyue lowered her eyes again, and the self mockery at the corners of her mouth became deeper. "What happened with Yang Ziyu had nothing to do with Mo Mo... Did I hate her because she and Gu Beichen helped me?" She pulled the corners of her mouth again. When did it start Even in the face of Mo Shaochen, she can say Yang Ziyu calmly? Lifting her eyes, Li Xiaoyue looked a little distant. "Although someone made an article on this matter, I don''t blame Mo Mo... This is my life, I recognize it!" "Li Xiaoyue!" Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue and suddenly became angry. However, he didn''t delve into why he was so angry. "I''m fine, really..." Li Xiaoyue raised her eyes and looked serious. Mo Shaochen frowned. "Often, most of the people who say they''re okay have something to do..." "Also," Li Xiaoyue laughed at herself, "women are duplicity." She heaved a long sigh, "but I really have no idea about foam..." Mo Shaochen stared at Li Xiaoyue tightly, as if he wanted to see through this woman "It''s not easy for her than me. At most, I ate the consequences because of my antecedents." Li Xiaoyue shrugged, "but she has borne too much." In a word, with a heavy sigh "It''s not a lie to be her best friend all your life." Li Xiaoyue smiled. This time, she was smiling from her heart, although it was still bitter. "Actually..." "Senior brother!" Li Xiaoyue interrupted Mo Shaochen with a smile, "don''t say anything... Otherwise, when I go abroad, I can''t let go of foam. I have to remember you. I can''t live this day?" "..." Mo Shaochen moved his lips, but he didn''t know what he was going to say. Li Xiaoyue likes him, he knows. However, he still had Shen Chu in his heart... Even though he knew that he would not continue with her. "I''ll go, OK." Li Xiaoyue breathed a long sigh of relief, and her nerves relaxed, "I''m gone, and you don''t have to look at me for Gu Beichen. By the way..." Mo Shaochen stared at Li Xiaoyue and waited for her to continue. "I was browsing the Internet at that time and saw that Shen Chu has been in the limelight recently..." Li Xiaoyue said with a smile. "Anyone who can turn back can be forgiven. Since senior brother can''t let go, in fact, why not be brave?" Mo Shaochen tightened his eyebrows and looked at Li Xiaoyue''s line of sight. From staring, he also became familiar with it Li Xiaoyue didn''t guess what his expression meant, but got up, "well, I''ll wash and sleep. I''ll be in good shape tomorrow and say goodbye to my girl..." Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue walking in the direction of the guest''s bedroom, and he had an unspeakable blockage in his heart. That feeling is like a lump in the throat, unable to go up and down The next day, Los Angeles suddenly cooled down. The overcast weather seems to be pressing down Li Xiaoyue didn''t expect that before she left, she met Jane Mo in the VIP independent waiting room at the airport. "Your husband is really boring..." Li Xiaoyue looked dissatisfied. "It''s up to half an hour before boarding. He just asked you to see me off?" "Xiao Yue..." Jian Mo just shouted a name and his nose was sour. "Yes!" Li Xiaoyue hurriedly stopped, "girl, I''m starting a new life. How did you make me look like what''s going on?" Said, she also looked at Jian Mo''s swollen stomach, "our little son, don''t say I bully his mother!" Jane Mo''s mood was suddenly relieved by Li Xiaoyue''s words. She stared at her unhappily, "I don''t know when to see you this time, so I can''t be sad about spring and autumn?" "How did you say that hypocritical remark?" Li Xiaoyue smiled, "well... Parting, is it far from goodbye?" Chapter 644 There is no eternal gathering, and naturally there is no eternal difference Parting, just for the next meeting... That''s all! Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue hug each other and say goodbye. She doesn''t worry about anything in Xiaoyue''s life. She knows that ah Chen will arrange everything. Her only worry is Xiaoyue''s psychological endurance. "Girl..." Li Xiaoyue patted Jian Mo on the back. "If you can hold on, how can I give up?" "I believe in you..." said Jane mo. "I''ll wait for you to come back!" In my ear, there is the final notice of boarding Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue let go of each other and smiled at each other... They didn''t say "goodbye" because they knew they would meet soon. Li Xiaoyue looked around greedily, and her eyes couldn''t help spilling a touch of loss. Jian Mo didn''t expose her, pretended not to see... Endured the sadness of parting, waved with Li Xiaoyue and watched her board the plane. When the gears of the plane rubbed against the ground and the huge plane gradually became small and invisible at the bottom of her eyes, Jane Mo was still holding her head up against the glass window The body was pulled into the solid arms, and a low and magnetic voice came slowly, "everything will be all right..." Jane Mo didn''t think about anything, but leaned back in Gu Beichen''s arms, "I firmly believe!" Whether it''s her, Xiaoyue... Or Zixiao, everything will be all right. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and walked to the parking lot When the car drove out of the parking lot, I saw a car parked by the fence in the distance. Mo Shaochen leaned on the hood with his hands in his pockets and slightly tilted his head. "Xiao Yue didn''t see him just now. She''s a little lost." Jane is dissatisfied. "Now, no one can rely on Xiao Yue. Everything depends on her." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, "Shaochen just knows this very well..." Jane Mo didn''t say much. In fact, she also understood that she just complained. "No?" Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen controlling the car and didn''t plan to go to Mo Shaochen. "Some things, go around by yourself..." Gu Beichen said unintentionally, "where do you have so many thoughts to manage some mess?" Jane Mo frowned and looked at Gu Beichen with some incomprehension. Gu Beichen just looked at her and smiled without explanation At the right time, the pleasant piano music from Jane Mo''s mobile phone interrupted her thoughts. Took out her mobile phone and saw that it was su Junli. She immediately picked it up with a smile in her mouth, "Jun Li..." As soon as the name was called out, someone''s face sank! "Are you free this evening?" Su Junli''s soft and genial voice came slowly. Jian Mo subconsciously looked at Gu Beichen, "what''s the matter?" "Grandpa invited you and Chen Shao to have dinner at home..." Su Junli teased with a smile. "Well, ask the one next to you first." Jian Mo heard Su Junli''s banter in his words, turned his mouth and asked, "Grandpa Su asked us to have dinner in the evening..." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, "Hmm!" He answered and then said, "just in time, I have something to find Su sanshao." "..." Jian Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and looked at Gu Beichen''s tight handsome face, with a smile uncontrollably suppressed. She narrowed her eyes and replied to Su Junli, "OK." "See you that night..." "See you in the evening!" After hanging up the phone, Jane Mo said in a strange voice: "when others help someone, they don''t say a word and spare no effort... But how can someone feel ungrateful, even if it''s the same as others owe him?" "Do I have to thank the man who covets my wife?" Gu Beichen''s voice was dark and dangerous. "Husband..." Jane Mo said with a smile, "let''s go to the supermarket first?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "what are you doing in the supermarket?" "Buy vinegar..." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen seriously and said, "drink enough first, and then go to Su''s house in the evening... Otherwise, what if Grandpa Su doesn''t have enough vinegar in their house?" "..." Gu Beichen twitched on his thin lips, "Jane Mo, are you good at it?" "OK!" Jane Mo smiled and said, "I just like to see you jealous..." she stretched out her hand and gently pinched Gu Beichen''s cheek, "this is my exclusive power!" Gu Beichen''s heart suddenly became soft because of Jian Mo''s small action. "You rely on Xiaoyan now. You know I dare not do anything to you!" Jane Mo immediately laughed happily Just, laughing and laughing, suddenly, the smile on her face inexplicably became a little flustered. "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo in his eyes, worried at the bottom of his eyes. Jane Mo pulled the corner of her mouth again, "it''s all right, I''m nervous..." she said casually, but the inexplicable panic in her heart didn''t disappear at all. ¡­¡­ The waves roared and beat the rocks. After turning over thousands of waves, they were swallowed up by the sea. In the temporary operating room in the Mo palace castle, the medical staff are making final preparations... All the instruments here are the latest and most advanced in the world. With a click, a flash of lightning tore the sky over the edge of the sea Then, the wandering heavy rain fell madly, knocking on the sea and shrouding the castle in the dark. The sound of footsteps outside was in sharp contrast to the silence in Shi juechi''s bedroom. "Can''t drag on..." Carney''s voice broke the silence. The sample paced back and forth with some anxiety. Finally, he sat down on the sofa and directly sat down in a pit. He scratched his head anxiously, looked at Carney, and looked at Shi juechi who had fallen into a coma "Never say less and drag on..." the sample said in a sullen voice. Carney turned abruptly, "how can I drag?" He gritted his teeth and roared, "if you don''t have surgery, you won''t even have 20% success!" The sample''s simple and honest face is unwilling, "but never say..." "All I know is that I don''t want to die less!" Carney gnashed his teeth and interrupted the sample, "Jian Mo, or Gu Beichen, have nothing to do with me... Although I have to listen to absolutely less. But... That''s also based on his living!" The little sample opened his mouth and wanted to refute, but he thought Carney was right Carney turned angrily again and looked at the raindrops beating on the window, then blurred his sight, and his eyes were completely powerless. The weather of lightning and thunder is dark all day Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window, and the dark curtains hid the light that was not too bright. Mosen only felt that the air was condensed and there was no way to breathe "After Li Yunze found Jian Mo, there was no development as expected by Qin Shao..." Mosen continued to report, "not only did he not break with Gu Beichen, but even there seemed to be no tension with Chen Xuan when things just happened..." Chapter 645 Shi Shaoqin frowned invisibly, and the beautiful corners of his mouth immediately overflowed with a smile that people couldn''t understand, but gave birth to a cold smile on the soles of people''s feet Mosen has been with Shi Shaoqin for many years. He is used to his darkness, but he has never been used to the cold on him. "You mean..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was very slow. "Chen family, in fact, has no influence on Chen at last?" The sound of light eh, word by word, fell on Mohsen''s heart like a drum. He swallowed hard, lowered his eyes and answered, "yes!" The Chen family is worthy of being a person. They know that they should use Jian Mo to deal with Gu Beichen Unfortunately, such means, in the case of Gu Beichen guarding against Qin Shao, can''t play any role at all. Jian Heng''s death is also a "gift" from Qin Shao to Gu Beichen! It''s just a pity that it was the Dragon owl''s man who did it last, not Gu Beichen Now, to poke out Chen Xuan''s identity is to make Gu Beichen and Li Yunze have problems, and then let him have no time to separate. But now, things are solved faster than expected "You said..." Shi Shaoqin glanced at morsen. "Li Yunze is looking for Jian Mo, but there is no following?" Morson raised his eyes and said to Shang Shi Shaoqin, "yes!" Shi Shaoqin smiled, but the smile was so cold that it didn''t even spread around his mouth He narrowed his eyes and looked ahead... In the gap of the curtain, he could occasionally see lightning tearing the gray sky. The rain is getting heavier and heavier. ''crackling'' knock on the window, because there is no rule, it makes people listen upset. Silence, and the rain formed a strong contrast I don''t know how long it took until Morson began to breathe heavily because of the heavy pressure. "Take the fifth share..." Shi Shaoqin''s mouth overflowed with a bloody smile. After he paused slightly, he slowly said the second half of the sentence, "... To the Chen family!" Mosen''s pupil widened, slightly surprised, but he recovered his calm in an instant, "yes!" Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, turned around, and left the bedroom with a calm and cool step to Shi juechi''s bedroom In the long and heavy corridor, only the light is not very bright. In the dim yellow, the color of ghosts overflows. Open the door The voice of Carney and the sample, who were originally arguing, suddenly stopped. "Qin Shao!" The two quickly saluted respectfully. Shi Shaoqin stood at the end of the bed and ignored them. He just looked at Shi Juxi, who was pale and gray. "How long can he wait?" Shi Shaoqin spoke coldly. The sample looked at Carney and dared not speak. "Qin Shao, never. Although he is gentle on weekdays, you know... If he really decides something, sometimes we can''t stop it." Carney said calmly. Shi Shaoqin raised his eyes slightly. "Yes..." he seemed to hiss, "if you can use your life to talk to me about conditions, who can stop him?" The sample and Carney''s heart "clattered" at the same time, swallowing one by one, and dared not answer. "What a pity..." Shi Shaoqin sighed, "juechi still can''t buy them more time." In a word, it''s like a hell messenger seducing the soul. It''s cold and piercing without any emotion Carney''s heart is heavy. Although he was fighting with the sample just now, he also hopes that his wish can be achieved. But obviously, he should face it rationally ¡­¡­ Jane Mo changed her clothes and went downstairs. She saw Gu Beichen standing in the porch waiting for her. "Susan''s gone? Is it over?" Jane Mo was a little surprised. Gu Beichen was just in the study talking to Susan who came to send documents for him to sign. He went downstairs faster than her. Gu Beichen nodded with a smile. When Jian Mo came over, he squatted down in front of her with flat shoes, gently raised her ankles and changed her shoes Since her stomach grew bigger and bigger, it was inconvenient for her to do some things. Changing shoes became Gu Beichen''s routine. Jian Mo has been used to being moved from the beginning... Their actions are coordinated without words. Human beings are really greedy. At first, you will be very moved when the other party treats you well However, when it becomes a habit, you will take it for granted. "What do you think?" Gu Beichen got up after changing Jian Mo''s shoes. Seeing that her thoughts were drifting, he frowned and asked. Jane Mo pulled back her thoughts, smiled and raised her eyebrows with a bit of coyness and anger in her voice, "I was thinking... The original feeling has become a habit. If you don''t do something that moves me more, will I lose?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil gradually became deep, "how could it?" He dropped a kiss on her forehead and opened his mouth in a low and magnetic voice, "if you become used to me, you will only rely more on me..." With overbearing words and self-confidence, Jian Mo and Gu Beichen smiled at each other and went out of the villa together Even in the gloomy weather, I thought it would rain, but it didn''t rain. However, the slight cold breath in the air is getting heavier and heavier. Su Zhenqi invited Gu Beichen and his wife to dinner. First, they are both famous in Los Angeles and have contacts on weekdays. Second, there is a simple foam involved in it. This relationship is continuous cutting and disorderly management. "How many months have it been?" Su Zhenqi looked at Jian Mo''s swollen stomach and could not hide his envy in his eyes. Jane Mo replied with a smile, "another week will be eight months." "I was born at the end of that year..." Su Zhenqi said so. He couldn''t hide his envy in his voice. Finally, he took a look at Su Junli. Su Jun left the corner of his mouth with a warm smile. He didn''t care about Su Zhenqi''s anger, but looked at Jian Mo helplessly After a relaxed meal, Su Zhenqi said to Jian Mo, "accompany my old man to the back greenhouse to pick flowers and come back. Let''s consume them?" Jane Mo smiled and nodded, "I also want to say, let Grandpa Su walk with me, a pregnant woman!" "Ha ha..." Su Zhenqi smiled happily. "Then our two men want to be together. Let''s go!" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen, and then went to the flower house with Su Zhenqi Su Junli and Gu Beichen also went to the living room to rest. Soon, a servant brought coffee and fruit. "I''m afraid you can see Grandpa''s purpose today." Su Junli was the first to speak. Gu Beichen looked at Su Junli with deep eyes. "Master Su has such an idea. The question is, can you put it down?" Su Jun laughed at himself and didn''t speak. "San Shao, I thank you for everything you have done to Mo''er..." "What I did to Mo Mo was voluntary," Su Junli interrupted Gu Beichen with a smile. "Why should Xie chenshao pull away the relationship between me and Mo Mo?" "Some things or people can think and read..." Gu Beichen''s vision is more and more deep, "but some can''t!" Chapter 646 Su Junli smiled and said calmly, "that''s my freedom. Even if Chen Shao can turn clouds and rain, I''m afraid he doesn''t have the right to care who I think or read..." "That''s true..." Gu Beichen''s thin lips scratched a thin smile, then reached into his pocket and took out something from his pocket. Su Jun looked at his hand from his sight and saw Gu Beichen''s hand slightly loose, and a necklace hanging from his fingers But in an instant, Su Jun''s eyes tightened when he looked at the necklace. "For nearly five years, I can still see this necklace..." Su Jun left his eyes slightly deep and looked at Gu Beichen on the necklace, "... I really want to thank Chen Shao." "Lin''s private customization, especially the exclusive customization..." Gu Beichen slowly said, "you have to hand in the design drawings yourself, don''t you?" Only famous people know this rule. As a high-end customized luxury, Lin is customized exclusively. It''s not that you draw the design drawing, but that cats and dogs can make it for you "In my impression... San Shao seems to have never studied design." Gu Beichen''s quiet words pierced Su Junli''s mind. Su Jun left his face unchanged, still as warm as jade. "It''s normal to do something with your heart for your beloved... Isn''t it?" "But it''s not normal for you to spy on my wife." Gu Beichen said coldly, "or... San Shao is used to this ranking because he ranks third in the Su family?" "..." Su Jun twitched from the corner of his mouth, "Chen Shao, this vinegar is really strong!" Gu Beichen snorted, then raised his hand, "I appreciate what you did for Mo''er, although you don''t need..." Su Jun left his hand and caught the necklace. The slightly cold touch fell on the palm of his hand, and his heart was suddenly stung. "You don''t need it because you want to. As long as I let go again, you won''t give in!" Gu Beichen directly exposed Su Junli''s mind, "unfortunately, you will never have such a chance." Su Junli looked at the double m of the artistic characters in the palm of his hand and mocked himself, "I love Mo Mo, so I respect her decision..." He raised his eyes and looked at Gu Beichen coldly. "Chen Shao, do you really think that I can''t catch up with a woman in four and a half years?" A rhetorical question made Gu Beichen frown immediately. "What about a woman''s empty window, even if she loves her again?" Su Jun also became deep from her sight, "I didn''t have all the firepower, just don''t want her to regret later..." Gu Beichen''s deep ink pupil gradually overflowed coldly. Su Jun left but took back his sight and looked far ahead, "Chen Shao, woman... You don''t know me!" Words fall, he slants Mou to look at Gu Beichen again, the sarcasm on the face, does not hide. Gu Beichen''s anger gradually appeared, "but I won''t appreciate it!" After four and a half years, Su Junli can make Jian Mo fall in love with him He didn''t do it so deliberately. He just didn''t want to regret the way she was born one day. Someone''s love is overbearing possession. There are also people''s love, such as Su Jun leaving Jianmo... Her happiness is his end! ¡­¡­ Jian Mo walked on the path in the greenhouse and watched Su Zhenqi skillfully cut flowers and plants with scissors "Grandpa Su still has this hobby!" Jane Mo casually turned over the flower arrangement book she had just taken from the wooden table. Su Zhenqi looked back and said casually, "I''m old and can''t hold my grandson. I have to find something for myself." "Isn''t there a brother on Junli?" Jane Mo asked with an eyebrow. Su Zhenqi was a little angry, "I just want to hold Jun away!" Jane Mo smiled and didn''t pierce the old man''s anger Su Zhenqi took the cut flowers and plants to the wooden table in front of him. In due time, the flower tea had already opened when he came in... He poured a cup for Jian Mo and motioned her to sit down. "In fact, I thought you asked us to have dinner today. You had something to do with ah Chen." Jane Mo said after sniffing the aroma of scented tea. "I have something to discuss with him..." Su Zhenqi said, "but I also want to talk to you about Jun Li." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she fanned her eyes and said softly, "I''m sorry for Jun Li''s feelings." "It''s not your fault," Su Zhenqi cut the flower branches. "He put his feelings on his own, and no one forced him." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and looked at Su Zhenqi. Suddenly she didn''t know what to say Su Zhenqi skillfully arranged the flowers and plants, took a look at Jane Mo, and finally fell on her left ear, "were you tied by bad guys when you were a child?" Jane Mo was stunned and shook her head Just wanted to say ''no'', suddenly remembered something, she wrung her eyebrows and said, "is it OK to be tied away by the way because of curiosity?" Then she looked at Su Zhenqi suspiciously, "how does grandpa Su know?" Su Zhenqi''s men kept moving, but slowly said, "the man you were tied away and saved by the way is Jun Li..." "..." Jane Mo suddenly stared, some unbelievable. "Because that time, you left a scar behind your left ear. Although it''s not clear after so many years, the print is still there..." Su Zhenqi continued, "when you strive for the design of Adrian concert hall, you can consider your company. The big reason is that Junli sees this mark." Jane Mo frowned "Of course..." Su Zhenqi said with a smile. "Finally, you can get the design right because your design makes Junli like... For this, Junli is still public and private." Jane Mo tilted her mouth a little angrily, and old man Su made it clear that he was teasing her. "But what a coincidence..." Jane Mo still didn''t dare to believe it. If Su Zhenqi hadn''t said it, she would have forgotten this experience "Although you are unintentional, Junli can''t do that." Su Zhenqi inserted flowers. "At that time, Junli didn''t really go back to Su''s house..." After a pause, Su Zhenqi then said, "there was something wrong with his mother''s relationship with his father, and he has been away with Jun. when the child is old, he can''t always go back to Su''s house, but who knows, there was an accident just after he came back..." Jane Mo frowned and thought about the original thing, "but that kidnapping seemed to..." "It''s childish?" Su Zhenqi answered. Jian Mo nodded sheepishly, "I thought it was hard to escape at that time, but now I think the two children ran away..." "Because it was a servant of the Su family who tied you up at that time. He made some mistakes and didn''t really plan on how to deal with Junli. He just wanted to talk about terms with me." Su Zhenqi sighed, "fortunately, you ran away with Jun at that time..." Jane morhu lip took a sip of flower tea and didn''t ask the reason. Su Zhenqi felt something in his eyes. Soon, he didn''t stay too long. "At first, I thought Jun Li was attracted to you because he recognized you as a girl when you were a child. He was even blinded by that once gratitude and thought it was love..." Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at Su Zhenqi. The corners of her mouth were a little tight. "But five years ago and later," Su Zhenqi looked at Jian Mo and his eyes became deeper. "I found that I was wrong..." Chapter 647 Jane Mo''s hand holding the cup tightened and didn''t know how to answer. Su Junli''s feelings for her are very clear to her Whether she was embarrassed with ah Chen at the beginning or when she went to Britain to study architectural design, the existence of such a man made her heart beat. Maybe, just like the milk bag, if Jun Li tries harder Jane Mo drooped her eyes and laughed at herself at the bottom of her eyes. She didn''t know if Jun would put down her past with ah Chen and stay with him if she worked harder. However, can a woman with Gu Beichen''s children really put down the past? "I began to disagree that he was involved with you. After all..." Su Zhenqi put down his scissors and poured himself herbal tea. "After all, you are Gu Beichen''s woman." When he said this, there was a dignified look in his obvious expression "But you can''t even control your feelings. Who can control it?" Su Zhenqi sighed, "but Junli''s infatuation revealed unintentionally, I knew... I can''t control it." Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at Su Zhenqi "Then I thought, anyway, you and Gu Beichen are divorced. If Jun Li really likes it, I''ll accept it." Su Zhenqi said here, a little angry, "but in the end... You''re still with Gu Beichen!" Jane moped her lips and felt a little guilty. "However, the feelings of things, cold and warm know... Who is who the robbery in life, that is also doomed." Su Zhenqi continued to arrange flowers after drinking tea. "Jun can''t leave it. That can only show that you have your excellence." "Grandpa Su, I''m sorry!" Jian Mo looked down again, "for Jun Li''s feelings, I can''t return to love..." "I know!" Su Zhenqi nodded. "This is another purpose for me to find you and Chen Shao for dinner today." "Huh?" Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at Su Zhenqi. She suddenly felt that the old man must be making some ideas. Su Zhenqi''s mouth overflowed with a sly smile, "just tell me, would you like Junli to break his mind to you?" Jane Mo was silent, sighed and said, "I don''t want to hurt him... Otherwise, isn''t it too cruel to him?" "Lovelorn is the most hurt," Su Zhenqi rolled his eyes. "What else can be more hurt?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth. She suddenly felt that there was an old man with broken heart at home... It was both happiness and headache! "What are you going to do?" Jane Mo skimmed her lips. She had to ask clearly. She could not tell that the old man had dug a hole waiting for her. Su Zhenqi nodded secretly when he saw that Jane Mo was on alert at the bottom of her eyes. It''s really not easy for such a woman to wake up no matter when she is sad or when. "Xiaomo..." Su Zhenqi shouted and suddenly realized something. Looking at Jian Mo who was slightly stunned, he asked, "can I call you like this?" From the initial amazement, Jian Mo narrowed her eyes and smiled. Her voice was soft and said, "of course..." Everyone in the family called her "Xiaomo". Such a long lost title has missing and pain. But at this moment, when Su Zhenqi shouted like this, Jane Mo''s heart was suddenly warm and sour. "Xiaomo, if I want Junli to get away from you, I can only take a strong dose of Medicine..." Su Zhenqi sighed heavily, "no harm, no relief, do you understand?" Jane Mo naturally understood, but she couldn''t bear it in her heart. "I''ll just cooperate..." Jian Mo sighed and looked down at the floating petals in the glass with a slight heavy heart. Can let Jun Li have a good relationship again, in fact... She also has selfish ideas. "Does it look good?" Su Zhenqi pushed the newly inserted flowers to Jian Mo, "here you are!" Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked... When she saw the bouquet, the corners of her mouth pulled out. "Still..." Jane Mo tried to open her eyes and tell lies, "... It''s so beautiful!" Su Zhenqi looked at Jian Mo''s expression, and immediately "ha ha" smiled brightly, "if you can manage your expression at the moment, I will be happier." Jane Mo twitched again at the corner of her mouth, looking at the messy bouquet without any aesthetic angle, "I''ll try my best next time..." Su Zhenqi laughed again. The whole person looked very happy. When an old man and a young man returned to the villa, Gu Beichen and Su Junli were playing chess and fighting very closely. Su Zhenqi looked aside and quietly said to Jian Mo, "Jun Li is going to lose..." Sure enough, in two minutes, Gu Beichen won! "Good, good..." Su Zhenqi nodded. "Junli is a master of chess. Unexpectedly, Chen Shao is not bad in this respect." "Old Su flattered me." Gu Beichen answered faintly, looked at Jian Mo, and then asked, "old Su, do you want to take a plate?" "Good!" Su Zhenqi immediately brightened his eyes. "Let''s go to the study and talk while we go." Gu Beichen nodded slightly and looked at Jian Mo again "I won''t eat her again." Su Junli looked gentle, but his voice was cold. "Who knows?" Gu Beichen responded coldly. Su Junli didn''t speak any more. He just pretended to be gloomy Sure enough "Why didn''t I know when you were so quarrelsome?" Jian Mo stared at Bei Chen discontentedly, and felt distressed about Su Jun''s departure. "..." Gu Beichen moved slightly on one side of his thin lip, and the eagle glanced at Su Jun, with a cold look in the depths of his eyes. Su Zhenqi had already held back his smile and said: "Jun Li, you stay with Xiaomo for a while. Chen and I have little to talk about." "OK." Su Jun answered with a smile and glanced at Gu Beichen lightly, with a smile in the bottom of his eyes. Gu Beichen and Su Zhenqi go to the study. The servant has sent Jian mo the stewed soup "Mom said that this soup is good for pregnant women," Su Junli said with a smile. "I''ll let the kitchen prepare it." Jane Mo is not hypocritical, or because she and Su Jun have been too familiar for four and a half years... It''s not polite. "That flower... Grandpa planted it?" Su Jun looked at the bouquet put aside and frowned slightly. Jane Mo also looked, "is Grandpa Su intentional?" Su Junli shrugged and didn''t answer. Jane Mo also guessed that people who planted such a large greenhouse and got so many books to study If such a level is inserted, it is either too lack of talent or intentional. Seeing Su Junli''s appearance, it''s obvious... Grandpa Su did it on purpose. Jian Mo glanced back and looked at the direction of the study... He saw the servant sending tea in and just came out. "There are two main things to call you here today." Su Zhenqi took a sip of tea and spoke slowly. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly picked, "please speak, old su." "The first one is about the construction of the music city next year... In terms of personal feelings and overall direction, I hope the emperor can win this project." Su Zhenqi said straight to the point, "another one," he paused and looked closely at Gu Beichen with a scheming eye, "I want an yuan to recognize Xiaomo as his adopted daughter!" Chapter 648 Gu Beichen took a sip of tea. There was not much emotion on his cold face. He just spoke slowly: "although the music city is the focus of the Su family next year, it is also the main project promoted by the government, but will the emperor participate in it? For the time being, I can''t give Mr. Su a clear answer." "Well, the next year''s plan hasn''t been decided yet. I know that." Su Zhenqi nodded. "Since Su Lao mentioned..." Gu Beichen put down the cup, slightly pondered, and said in the end, "I''ll consider it." Su Zhenqi nodded again with a smile on his mouth, without too much entanglement on this issue, "what about the second one?" "What''s Mo''er''s opinion?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looks at Su Zhenqi deeply. One is the sharpness of time, the other is the depth of ups and downs... The two lines of sight are aligned, and no one deviates by half. "I didn''t say..." Su Zhenqi sighed quietly. No one could stop the young man''s spirit. Especially in the face of Jane Mo''s problem! Gu Beichen slightly restrained his eyes and slowly opened his mouth: "I don''t care. I can reduce another rival..." he said, with a slight change of voice. "But this decision is to be decided by Mo''er himself. No one can help her arrange anything, including me!" Su Zhenqi looked at Gu Beichen seriously. Such a proud son of heaven, he has always been the one who decides and controls in the mall... Now, because of his love, he knows how to respect. Hehe... In this world, love is the most grinding thing in the world. At the same time, it can make people learn what they don''t understand all the time. ¡­¡­ After the VIP ward of Huakang hospital came in from Li Jinxi''s abortion, the whole floor was dignified and people couldn''t breathe. Chen Xuan has lost his evil charm in the past. His clothes are wrinkled and drooping on his body, and his hair is slightly messy... Even his beard is messy. Seeing that the nurse came out after changing the medicine, he stepped forward with an arrow, "how''s Jinxi?" The nurse was scratched by Chen Xuan''s arm. It hurt. ''hissing'' and said helplessly, "Xuan Shao, the eldest lady''s body is still like that. She can''t recover so quickly." Chen Xuan loosened his hand feebly. The nurse held the medical tray in one hand and rubbed his arm in the other. There was dissatisfaction on his face, but he couldn''t say anything. "Does she still refuse to see me?" Chen Xuan asked, his voice hoarse and dry. The nurse rolled her eyes and thought: how do I know? "Xuan Shao, I have to go to another ward to change my dressing..." the nurse said, without taking care of Chen Xuan, and turned to the next ward. Chen Xuan stepped back powerlessly. His body leaned against the wall and hung his head. He was extremely decadent. Li Yunze stood at the other end of the corridor in a doctor''s robe and looked at Chen Xuan like this Hands, gradually clenched up. It''s one thing to say you can''t argue with Chen Xuan, but it''s another thing to really do it. Taking back his sight, Li Yunze walked up to Li Jinxi''s ward Hearing the footsteps, Chen Xuan weakly raised his heavy head, watched Li Yunze enter, and then wanted to push the door of the ward in front of him. "Yunze..." Chen Xuan shouted hoarsely. Li Yunze held the door handle tightly and didn''t look back. He just said coldly, "don''t you think we should give each other a little space?" When the question fell, he didn''t say anything. He just glanced back. Then he took back his sight, pushed open the door of the ward and went in Li Jinxi, sitting on the hospital bed, also lost the brilliance of the past, and his whole face was pale and invisible. "It''s so late, don''t you rest?" Li Yunze came forward to check the data on the instrument, "you''re equivalent to having a baby now. Don''t cherish yourself. Are you going to burn the root of the disease in the future?" "I can''t get pregnant anyway..." Li Jinxi''s voice is also hoarse, "what''s the matter?" "Jinxi!" Li Yunze frowned discontentedly. Li Jinxi''s eyes turned red immediately. She bit her lip and didn''t let herself cry However, where can I resist such sadness? She hurried to the other side, as if Li Yunze couldn''t see her cry. Li Yunze said nothing but stood there. After a while, he said with a slight sigh: "Jinxi, Chen Xuan has been outside day and night. Escape is not the way." "I don''t want to see him..." Li Jinxi sniffed. "But you miss him!" Li Yunze''s voice was very light, but it hit Li Jinxi''s heart heavily. Li Jinxi looked at Li Yunze and wanted to refute his words, but he swallowed them without saying anything. They are twins. Many times, they have the same mind Why deceive yourself? "People who love each other don''t have to be together." Li Jinxi said with self mockery, and his astringent voice was filled with grief. Li Yunze pulled over the stool and sat down, "Jinxi, brother won''t blame you. Brother and mother won''t want to see you like this..." Li Jinxi was silent, but his eyes were full of self mockery. What if you don''t blame? Can she really act as if nothing has happened and be with Chen Xuan? "I know it''s hard." Li Yunze stared, "but I don''t want to see you like this... Understand?" Tears burst out again. Li Yunze raised his hand and gently wiped away his tears for Li Jinxi "Jinxi, Jian Mo told me last night..." Li Yunze said softly, "see your heart clearly and don''t let the past cause irreparable sadness in the future. Although it''s very difficult, we can''t escape." Li Jinxi raised her eyes and looked at Li Yunze Li Yunze smiled, though a little bitter. "I know you can... Huh?" Li Yunze asked softly, "even if you can''t do it now, you can do it and become a brave, strong... Woman who makes yourself happy!" The night is getting darker and darker because of the bad weather. The car came out of Su''s manor and passed through the neon streets of Los Angeles. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo returned to the villa. It was already past 10 p.m "I have something else to deal with," Gu Beichen changed Jian Mo''s slippers. "Go wash first. I''ll come later, huh?" "OK." Jane Mo answered with a smile. Both of them went upstairs. Gu Beichen sent Jian Mo into the bedroom before going to the study. While closing the door, Gu Beichen called Chen Xuan. After a long time, Chen Xuan took out his vibrating mobile phone from his pocket, looked at the call and answered, "hello?" Listening to his hoarse voice, Gu Beichen frowned slightly and said calmly, "when you get the news, the Mo palace will give the fifth share to the Chen family." "Oh..." Chen Xuan answered weakly. Gu Beichen''s eyebrows frowned tighter. "What?" Chen Xuan suddenly reacted. His body, which was unable to lean against the wall, suddenly stood up, "what do you mean?" "What do you say?" Gu Beichen Leng hum. Chen Xuan''s pupils dilated and put down the sentence "I know", he turned around and ran to the elevator At the right time, in the ward, Li Jinxi raised his lower lip and looked at Li Yunze''s hoarse mouth: "you call Chen Xuan in..." Chapter 649 Li Yunze stared at Li Jinxi deeply, nodded, and got up to call Chen Xuan Just as the door of the ward was opened, the elevator door closed in time. Everything was calm as if nothing had happened. Li Yunze looked at the empty corridor and looked around with a slight frown At the right moment, a nurse passed by and Li Yunze shouted at her. "See Chen Xuan?" Li Yunze asked. The nurse looked blankly around, "isn''t xuanshao always here?" She asked, and then guessed, "I guess I went to the bathroom?" Li Yunze listened, just a little confused, nodded and signaled that the nurse could be busy. Turning around and entering the ward, Li Yunze saw a self mockery at the corner of Li Jinxi''s mouth. He frowned secretly, "Jinxi..." "I was in his eyes, but I was unreasonable." Li Jinxi''s words were pathetic under the desolation. Li Yunze frowned and said, "it''s possible that you went to the bathroom... What are you thinking?" Li Jinxi didn''t speak, but slowly rubbed his body and tried not to pull the wound down, "I''m sleepy..." Li Yunze sighed, "then let Chen Xuan continue to wait and talk about it tomorrow." Li Jinxi didn''t speak, just closed his eyes. The depressing atmosphere in the ward became heavy in an instant. Li Yunze didn''t say anything more, but looked at the door of the eye disease room At the moment, what neither Li Yunze nor Li Jinxi thought was that Chen Xuan had been in the bathroom for a long time... For a long time, they thought he had disappeared from the world for no reason. ¡­¡­ After Gu Beichen called Chen Xuan, he immediately called Xiao Jing With the month of Jane, he doesn''t dare to be careless. Now he''s a little careless. Although I don''t know why Shi Shaoqin suddenly returned to the Mo palace and why he didn''t do anything other than using the Chen family in recent months, he can''t think... Shi Shaoqin gave up. "For the rest of the work, you''ll follow the previous arrangement." Gu Beichen spoke faintly. "I understand." Xiao Jing answered. Gu Beichen hung up after "um". Suddenly, the wind blew violently outside. Under the night light, the yellow leaves falling on the ground rolled up... Bleak. Gu Beichen lowered his eyes, deleted some text messages from his mobile phone, turned out of his study and went back to his bedroom. Jane Mo has taken a shower and is wiping her hair "I''ll come!" Gu Beichen came forward, took a big towel, gently wiped the water on Jian Mo''s hair, took the hair dryer and blew it for her. "I didn''t pay attention to talking with Junli at that time..." Jian Mo enjoyed Gu Beichen''s service. "Just read the text message, Xiaoya said there were some problems in the design direction. Let me go to the company with you tomorrow?" "OK..." Gu Beichen answered softly. I''ve been at home these days. Li Xiaoyue left again today. Gu Beichen knows she''s a little bored. Jane Mo smiled happily, "I heard that the handover of the opera house is almost over. When are you going to announce JK''s full control?" "Do you know?" Gu Beichen''s evil spirit picked his eyebrow tail, "few people know about JK''s full control." "Since you are going to take this opportunity to completely accept JK, I don''t believe it. You just think about it." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and said, "Oh, my assets are so huge. You say... If I don''t want you one day, aren''t you very poor?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a smile. I haven''t heard this woman running the train for a long time. I miss her very much. "You said, shall we sign an marital agreement?" Jane Mo said seriously, "otherwise, I''ll give you half of my property later. Think that''s an astronomical figure I don''t know. It''s also a meat pain!" "It''s all right, don''t sign..." "Why?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "Rich families are afraid of their property being divided when they marry a wife. Don''t they generally have an asset agreement?" She looked sad. "I have to follow suit." "If there is a day, I don''t want anything and give you all..." Gu Beichen''s smile deepened. Jane Mo listened, rolled her eyes and said discontentedly, "do you want to say... Even yourself, you don''t want to give it to me?" Gu Beichen''s smile has spread to the bottom of his eyes and rendered in the depths He put down the hair dryer, hugged her from behind Jane Mo, kissed her neck and earlobe, and said in a low and magnetic voice, "smart woman, sometimes it''s really a headache..." Jane Mo tilted her head at the right time, and her lips were right on Gu Beichen''s Gu Beichen wasn''t polite. The delicious food was not tasted and didn''t conform to his style! If you can''t attack with all your strength, let each other have me and I have you... However, the sweet little welfare can still make the rope tied with two hearts tighter and tighter! ¡­¡­ The storm kept falling, and the waves roared and roared, ravaging the reefs on the beach. Raindrops pounded on the windows crazily, making people upset. Shi juechi''s breath was short and he couldn''t catch it. He looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back powerlessly, and his eyes gradually overflowed with despair "If I die..." "Shut up!" Shi Shaoqin suddenly turned around and violently stopped Shi Juxi. Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin weakly. After a while, he said, "are you going to let me... Leave with... Regret?" "Shi Juxi!" Shi Shaoqin gnashed his teeth and squeezed every word out of his teeth. "You''ve spent so much effort to negotiate terms with me... It''s really good!" Shi Juxi frowned and didn''t speak. "For a simple Mo, for a Gu Beichen..." Shi Shaoqin sneered. "How can you bear to kill Kani, sample... And even Xiao Siyue who have always been with you?" "You won''t move them..." Shi Juxi gasped. "Their death... Only me... Only I can... Decide!" "However, I can make their life worse than death!" Shi Shaoqin said coldly, gritting his teeth. "Chi shaojue may come down from the stage without closing his eyes!" The sound of "quack" came, and the voice of dislocation of bone joints was filled with anger under forbearance. "Are you..." Shi juechi opened his eyes and looked at Shi Shaoqin. "My last words... Won''t let me say?" Shi Shaoqin turned his back again and didn''t go to see Shi juechi. He knows very well that without surgery, he will not last for a month! After an operation, you may not be able to get off the operating table After the heart is changed, it may be rejected, and he will be more painful, and the final outcome is still a death! The most important thing is that juechi has no will to survive. He is using his last chance to negotiate terms with him! "Shi juechi..." Shi Shaoqin clenched his hand more and more. "If you can''t get off the operating table, I''ll let Jane Mo and her baby bury you!" He turned and stared at Shi juechi with gloomy eyes, "I... Do what I say!" Chapter 650 With a click, the dark and gloomy weather was forcibly torn by lightning. Then, the thunder of "bang" crossed, and this sound hit Shi juechi''s heart heavily... Making his already overloaded heart harder and harder. Shi Shaoqin didn''t move or even call the doctor in He just turned slowly, his narrow eyes narrowed gradually, and looked at Shi Juxi faintly. Shi juechi''s breathing became shorter and shorter. The whole face turned red from pale due to the sharp contraction of the heart "Juechi, don''t threaten me!" Shi Shaoqin gritted his teeth and squeezed all the words out of his teeth. "If... You don''t want to live, what''s the use of this operation?" How can a person without any will to survive walk down the operating table with a high risk factor? Ho Shi Shaoqin sneered, "in fact, it''s better to die..." He suddenly said this in a cold voice without a trace of emotion, "you don''t have to be tortured, and your ''love'' Jane Mo can also be buried with you... How good?" The soft voice, with the breath of death, makes people feel that there is no trace of temperature. Shi juechi knew very well that Shi Shaoqin would do what he said. If he really can''t get off the operating table, Jane Mo and her baby will die... Even Gu Beichen can''t stop it! "Well..." Shi juechi slowly calmed down after a long time, and asked in a low voice, "if... I, I live... How can I survive?" "I won''t take the initiative to touch her for the time being!" Shi Shaoqin spoke indifferently. "Temporarily!" Shi Jue chiton''s breathing was not smooth again. "Shi Shaoqin... You, you deceive me!" Shi Shaoqin smiled lightly at the corners of his mouth. That smile was as dark as the raging thunder and rainstorm outside. "This is... You gave me... Gave me hope?" Shi juechi was powerless to cover his chest, which was already hard to bear. "At least... You bought them opportunities and time, didn''t you?" Shi Shaoqin asked, his voice was still cold, "or... Hello, at least you can have a chance to protect, can''t you?" Two questions directly poked into Shi juechi''s nerves Shi Shaoqin always knew what his weakness was in the person he was going to face! Staring deeply at Shi juechi, who is like a dying leaf, Shi Shaoqin slowly narrowed his eyes and suddenly opened his eyes, "juechi, if you really want to die, I will help you!" Then he turned around and walked out of the bedroom with cold and heartless steps "Shaoqin!" Shi Juxi clenched his teeth and shouted. Shi Shaoqin''s hand was already on the doorknob. He stopped slightly, glanced slightly at Shi Juxi, didn''t say anything, took back his sight, opened the door and went out "Qin Shao!" Kani stood at the door and saluted when Shi Shaoqin came out. "Prepare for surgery." Shi Shaoqin said without squinting and turned away. Kani looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back and the unclosed bedroom door... He sighed softly. The weakness is that there are few Qin people, but there are few Qin people. Push open the door and go in "Never less!" Carney sighed softly, "Qin Shao will not let go. You can only protect yourself if you try to survive." After a slight pause, he continued, "how can we manage the affairs of the living when people are dead?" Light Yi''s voice is helpless, but it is a fact. Shi juechi closed his eyes and said sadly in his voice, "Kani... It''s not what I want... Isn''t it?" Carney suddenly deviated his head. He was a man who didn''t frown even when he was bleeding. At this moment, his nose was suddenly sour and his eyes were red. Originally, the success rate has been increased to 20%. In recent days, it has been reduced to 10% because of repetition Such a success rate, even if it is the world''s top surgical team, can not have a little confidence to let us never get off the operating table. Not only he, but also Qin Shao is expecting too much, isn''t he? They only hope that they will never have the will to survive... At least, his success rate of wanting to live is higher than that of accepting his life! "Never less," Carney took a deep breath and forcibly forced the moisture in the bottom of his eyes back, "whether for himself or qinshao... Or," he paused and bit his teeth, "or Jianmo, please try..." he looked at Shi juechi, "try to get off the operating table!" The dark night passed very slowly under the thunder and lightning. It is less than 12 hours before the operation. With the approach of time, the whole castle and even the boundary of Mo Palace are shrouded in a gloomy atmosphere Everyone knows that if Shi juechi doesn''t get off the operating table, it will be the time for Shi Shaoqin to kill! At that time, maybe... Only blood can wash all his sadness and anger! the second day. The weather in Los Angeles was gloomy for several days. Finally, when it was dawn, there was a drizzle The cold breath in the air is a little more, so people don''t want to leave the quilt. "Good morning, husband!" Jane Mo also closed her eyes and hummed good morning in her nose. "Good morning..." Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo on his forehead. "It''s raining outside, or... You won''t go to the company today?" "No." Jane Mo opened her hazy eyes, "because the weather is bad, you''ll be lazy. You''ll teach Xiao Yan bad habits." Gu Beichen was distressed and proud to look at the little woman in his arms. His thin lips couldn''t help laughing, "get up?" Jane Mo looked up slightly, and her lips could only reach Gu Beichen''s chin. She kissed on the spot, and then sat up under his support After washing and having breakfast, it rained harder. "I''ll drive to the door." After Gu Beichen changed Jian Mo''s shoes, he got up and said. Jane Mo nodded with a smile and took an umbrella to Gu Beichen from one side... Everything is natural like an old husband and wife. Although, according to their marriage years, they are really old husband and wife Jian Mo stood under the eaves of the door and looked at Gu Beichen walking to the parking place with his pocket in one hand and his umbrella in the other... His sight gradually became blurred. Hand, gently stroking her stomach, Jane Mo felt that she was in late autumn. She was really sad about spring and autumn! Listening to the sound of the rain beating on the car body, Jian Mo looked at the blurred scenery, and suddenly her mind stopped It''s like thinking about something, but I don''t know what I''m thinking! The world is not quiet, but Jian Mo is quiet On her way to the emperor, the morning news once again pushed her to the headlines without her knowing! Chapter 651 "This Jane Mo makes headlines all day long. Why doesn''t she go to heaven?" In Lingyu international, many people are waiting for the elevator with newspapers, and there are more sour and jealous voices "If you have the ability to seduce a loyal dog''s overbearing president, you can go to heaven!" Someone joked and laughed. "I don''t have her coquettish strength..." the woman who spoke first sneered, "I don''t have the ability to step out at the beginning of eating soft rice." "Jane Mo is really not a soft eater." Someone sighed, "those who can go to UCL to read architectural design must have materials." "Who knows if it''s the place to buy?" Immediately someone said sour. "I don''t know if I bought it..." Mu Xiaoran didn''t know when he came to the women. "But her design won the prize, but I know." "I mean, I bought the indefinite prize!" Mu Xiaoran pulled a fake smile from the corners of his mouth and leaned over to the woman''s ear, "Yo, it''s sour... You have a sour stomach all night and come to work without brushing your teeth?" "How do you talk?" As soon as the woman heard it, she immediately blew her hair and raised her voice. Suddenly, the people waiting at the side of several elevators looked here Mu Xiaoran is also a little celebrity in Lingyu. After graduating from Los Angeles University, she has been working in Xiangyu. She can''t dig outside with much high salary... It once made people think how she and some people in Xiangyu were. Together with this rumor, the last one has no appearance But what she is really famous for is that no one can say that Jane foam is not in front of her. Who says she sprays who! In everyone''s eyes, she is Jian Mo''s loyal brain powder Later, it was said that her orientation was inappropriate and she had abnormal feelings for Jane. She didn''t explain, and let everyone guess and talk... Anyway, she can be said, not Jane mo. "Don''t add your dirty thoughts to others if you don''t have the ability..." Mu Xiaoran said coldly looking at the women. "It''s ugly to say sour when you can''t eat grapes. It''s really that several layers of powder can''t cover your wrinkled face." "..." several women suddenly stopped talking because of her words. At the right time, the elevator arrived at Xiangyu floor. Mu Xiaoran ignored their anger and entered the elevator with a cold hum. The originally noisy environment becomes quiet at this moment Xiangwan didn''t know when he would come, and when he got into the elevator, he praised mu Xiaoran, "your mouth is too poisonous! Be careful not to marry back..." Mu Xiaoran looked at each other with his arms around Xiang Wan and said deliberately, "it''s all right. Let sister Mo wrap me up later!" "Good idea..." lowered his voice to the evening, "and then I''ll go to Gu general contractor?" As she spoke, she covered her mouth and laughed. "Wait, emperor, I''ll sue you..." The low and shallow voice was submerged in the depressed elevator, and occasionally couldn''t help laughing, which made the crowded people feel very treacherous. ¡­¡­ Su Junli rubbed his eyebrows and looked at the report. He saw Su Zhenqi coming in with an umbrella and a pile of flowers. His warm face was filled with helplessness and unspeakable emotion. The servant took the flower from Su Zhenqi''s hand, motioned to him, smiled and turned away. Su Zhenqi looked at Su Jun leaning in front of the grand piano with a newspaper in his hand and walked over "What''s the matter?" Su Zhenqi pretended not to know what had happened and asked, "aren''t you going to the concert hall?" Su Junli didn''t speak. With a slight sullen look on his face, he handed the newspaper to Su Zhenqi. "Grandpa, don''t tell me. You don''t know this!" Su Zhenqi didn''t answer the newspaper, but looked down On the front page of the Los Angeles morning post, it was clearly written in big black¡ª¡ª Su Anyuan takes Jian Mo as her adopted daughter. Jian Mo will become the most valuable young lady in Los Angeles! There is also a subtitle at the bottom When a lover becomes a relative, Su sanshao is dejected and makes wedding clothes for others! "Today''s reporters are really not afraid of big things..." Su Zhenqi smiled and took over the newspaper. He didn''t read the report, but looked at a photo that was not old but could poke a knife in Su Jun''s centrifuge. That''s a picture of Su Jun playing the piano and Gu Beichen and Jian Mo Tango not far away in Los Angeles square Due to the angle problem, the whole picture looks very sad and lonely. "Grandpa!" Su Jun straightened up and looked at Su Zhenqi with some dissatisfaction. Su Zhenqi just folded up the newspaper. "Xiaomo''s birthday is just this weekend..." he said with a smile. "Anyuan will hold a music reception on that day and officially introduce Xiaomo to everyone." "..." Su Junli stared, "Grandpa!" Su Zhenqi accepted the smile on his face and became tough. "This matter has been settled... I don''t care what you think in your heart, or don''t think about anything!" Su Junli wrung his eyebrows and didn''t speak. Su Zhenqi turned and went upstairs to change his clothes. When he came to the stairs, he stopped and looked back at Su Junli, "Junli, Xiaomo is very happy now. You should let go..." Su Junli still didn''t speak. After watching Su Zhenqi go upstairs, he turned and walked out The air is full of cold and damp breath, and the sky is gray... Just like Su Jun''s mood at the moment. Looking at her happiness, I know it''s one thing to let go... But it''s not easy to really let go? Loved ones have become their relatives. It seems to be a disguised liberation, but is it not a deeper pain? Jian Mo looked at the newspaper, frowned, turned his head and looked through the glass at Gu Beichen''s office She didn''t expect that the powerful medicine grandpa Su said was like this! It''s cruel to treat Jun Li like this However, she can''t say wrong. Put down the newspaper, Jane Mo turned out of the lounge, went to the elevator and went to the design department floor The people who have made an appointment with Xiangyu have a meeting at 10 o''clock. Jian Mo needs to find something to sort out some thoughts. "Ding!" The sound of the arrival of the elevator abruptly broke Jane Mo''s thoughts... She was slightly stunned and didn''t react until the elevator door was opened. After entering the imperial design department, everyone was also discussing the headlines in the morning paper. When Jian Mo came in, he didn''t stop. "Mo Mo, the president, is about to become the son-in-law of Su Jiagan?" Li Tianyu didn''t change his joking nature. "In other words, you Godfather seems to have a lot of news recently." Jane Mo frowned and said with a depressed face, "please don''t use the word ''Godfather''. I''m afraid that when your president hears it, he will continue to wear small shoes for you!" Li Tianyu didn''t react at first. When everyone held back his smile, he suddenly patted his forehead, "Hey, now in this society, the word ''Godfather'' has been broken." Jian Mo was not in the mood to joke with Li Tianyu. She looked at Shen Chu''s position and frowned slightly when she saw no one. "Hasn''t Shen Chu come yet?" Chapter 652 "Yesterday, I said I had to go to the construction site to finish..." Li Tianyu received the newspaper. "By the way, you just have something to do when you come down." Jane Mo looked at Li Tianyu suspiciously, and then went to his office with him. "What''s the matter?" Jane Mo found a comfortable place to sit down. Li Tianyu poured water to her. "Emperor and JK design department need to integrate these days. I heard from the director that I want to integrate you directly..." he sat down opposite Jian Mo, "what do you think?" Jian Mo drank water and asked with a smile, "shouldn''t the director come to me about this?" "The president rejected him..." Li Tianyu sighed helplessly. "It''s boring to say you took over the project of the opera house." Jane Mo nodded, her eyes bent into crescent moon because of her smile She was good-looking, and now she has a maternal charm. Such a smile is particularly charming. Although Li Tianyu loves to make trouble with Jane Mo, he also knows that this person can''t think about Xiao, but at the moment, looking at her smile like this, he is a little out of his mind "Your president refused, and you asked?" Jane Mo asked with an eyebrow. "Didn''t I leave talent for the emperor?" Li Tianyu recalled, "besides, if you agree, the president won''t disagree." Jane Mo smiled and nodded, "but have you ever thought that he didn''t agree because he knew I wouldn''t agree?" "..." Li Tianyu twitched at the corners of his mouth and finally turned his mouth, "I''ll just try!" According to the president''s loyal dog model, he is also a wise man... What does his wife think? Can he not know? It''s just that he really wants Jian Mo to stay in the imperial design department. Leaving aside his husband''s company, it is also good for the design department in terms of talents "Dang Dang!" Someone knocked on the glass door. Li Tianyu looked at it... It was an assistant and nodded. The assistant pushed the door in, "team leader Jane, the people from Xiangyu are here. I arranged it in conference room 3." "OK, I''ll go right now..." Jian Mo put down the water cup, stood up with her waist, saw that Li Tianyu was still unwilling, smiled and said, "although I''m not a regular employee of the emperor, I''ll stay in the emperor recently." "That''s not the form of walking?" Li Tianyu muttered. Jane Mo smiled and said meaningfully, "not really, but I will intervene on both sides... And I will be very attentive." Then she looked at Li Tianyu, who was stunned. With a smile, she was ready to leave. Talent walked to the door and suddenly remembered something Jian Mo looked back at Li Tianyu. "Shen Chu is back. Tell her I''m looking for her!" Li Tianyu nodded and watched Jian Mo leave before muttering to himself: "excellent women can always get more attention..." Jane Mo is such a woman. She can eat with her face, but she has to speak with her strength! ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen ignored the vibration of the "buzzing" mobile phone. After signing his name on the document, he closed it and handed it to Susan. Gu Beichen picked up his mobile phone and frowned slightly when he saw that it was Su Jun''s departure. "Chen Shao, I''ll go out first..." Susan turned and left while Gu Beichen answered the phone. "Grandpa is going to have a reception on Mo Mo''s birthday." Su Jun said as he left the door to see the mountain. Gu Beichen looked down slightly, but his voice was indifferent: "Hmm!" "You''re not going to say anything?" Su Junli is light. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep. "Although I''m dissatisfied with it on Mo''er''s birthday, it can also be regarded as a memorial." After a pause, he didn''t pierce Su Junli''s mind of wanting him to refuse. He just said, "it''s rebirth, isn''t it?" "..." Su Jun twisted away from the center of his eyebrows and didn''t speak. Gu Beichen slowly lay back on the seat and said, "three little, even if it''s not that day... What if it''s delayed for a few days?" He sneered coldly, "no one can manage you when thinking about what doesn''t belong to you, but have you ever thought that it will cause Mo''er''s trouble?" Su Junli pulled over to the side of the road and watched the wiper swing left and right in front of him. On his warm face, something gradually cracked from the bottom of his eyes In the end, the last thought in my heart was broken in this sad season and weather. Without saying anything, Su Junli hung up the phone He lay back on the car seat and watched the wiper scrape the rain off the windshield again and again. As if the trace in my heart should be erased! ¡­¡­ "Qin Shao, all the preparations for the operation are ready..." Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back and said. Shi Shaoqin did not speak, but looked through the window at the gloomy weather. After two days and one night of rainstorm, it finally stopped before the operation, leaving only a drizzle, blocking the line of sight. The rolling waves also stopped a lot. All the quiet overflow didn''t make people feel relaxed, but more dignified. Shi Shaoqin turned and went to the direction of the temporary operating room "Ten minutes later, the operation will begin!" When Professor Smith saw Shi Shaoqin coming, he said seriously, "the spare heart has a high degree of coincidence at present." Smith didn''t ask shi Shaoqin about the source of these hearts. For a man who can''t estimate his financial resources and has power, I''m afraid it''s easy for him to find all kinds of dirty sources. Just, can money really buy health? "I want him to live!" On Shi Shaoqin''s handsome face, there was no temperature at all. Smith felt heavy. "I can only do my best." Shi Shaoqin deviated from his body and didn''t speak Smith''s blue eyes showed helplessness and didn''t say anything else, "I''m going in and ready!" "Yes!" Shi Shaoqin answered flatly. Smith opened his mouth and wanted to say something, but without saying anything, he turned around and entered the operating room Disinfection, dressing in surgical robes... Everything went smoothly. "The patient has been anesthetized," the anesthesiologist looked up and said, "surgery can be performed..." The short sentence made the medical staff in the whole operating room feel dignified. This time, Smith is the chief surgeon... And several deputy doctors are all world-famous senior doctors in cardiology or cardiothoracic and pulmonary medicine. The best doctor, the best equipment... But no one can guarantee that Shi juechi can get off the operating table. The sound of surgical instruments cuts through the skin and permeates people''s breath. In the operating room, but for an instant, the atmosphere fell into tension. And outside, there is no good point Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window in the corridor with his hands in his pockets. Within his sight, he was the busy figure of the poisoning factory Time, a little bit of the past... For those who wait, the suffering is unspeakable. Shi Shaoqin''s face was calm and could not see any emotion, but with the operation time getting longer and longer... The originally indifferent eyes became deeper and deeper! Chapter 653 "Xiaoya, Xiaoran, you should have no problem cooperating with Andy?" Jian Mo looked at Mo Xiaoya and asked. Mo Xiaoya nodded with a smile. "It should be no problem..." she said and looked at mu Xiaoran. "Xiaoran has been following Andy recently, and there is no problem with the connection between them." Mu Xiaoran also smiled and nodded, "sister Mo, I have no problem." ¡°OK£¡¡± Jane Mo stroked her stomach and comforted the restless little thing inside, "then I won''t participate in it next. I''m going to start taking maternity leave!" As she said that, she also flirted with her eyebrows and eyes and smiled under the banter on her face. "It''s almost noon. Mr. Gu of our family will see you later. This meeting is so long that he has to give us a look colder than the outside day..." joked to the evening and packed his things. "Sister Mo, we won''t have lunch with you." Jane Mo smiled and stared at her, "when everything is calm, we''ll get together again." Then she said with some melancholy, "I can go back to Xiangyu at that time." Mo Xiaoya and others did not think much, but thought that Jane Mo was talking about pregnancy. "I''ll be born in two months. I''ll have to be in confinement for more than half a year before I can go to work..." Mo Xiaoya sighed with a smile. "Hey, how time flies... When you just entered the company, you haven''t graduated, and now you''re the child''s mother!" Her emotion made Jian Mo''s involuntary memory return to the beginning For the medical expenses of his mother, he married Gu Beichen and signed several employment contracts with Xiangyu, which are the same as the deed of sale... It seems that it was yesterday. "Come on, sister Xiaoya, why are you sad about spring and autumn?" Mu Xiaoran smiled and joked, "aren''t you going to have a wedding with Da Xiong?" Mo Xiaoya and Jian Mo looked at mu Xiaoran and smiled at each other Some things, precipitated, are the happiest. After sending several people away, Jian Mo looked at the time and went to the office of the design department first. Shen Chu hasn''t come back yet Jane Mowei frowned, turned to go upstairs and called Shen Chu... But the phone rang and no one answered. With a slight sigh, she looked at the rising elevator number and felt a little uneasy, which gradually dispersed. When she was pregnant with a milk bag, she may have been too busy with her studies and had no time to think about things... But now, I don''t know if it''s because she''s too free. She can magnify anything in her heart. A "Ding" sound came, and the elevator door opened in time. Jane Mo hung her eyes thoughtfully and walked out... When she reacted, when someone was standing at the door, the man stepped back because of her steps for fear that she might hit her. "Eh?" Jane Mo raised her eyes and saw that it was Gu Beichen. "Are you going out?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and was a little distracted. He frowned slightly, but there was not too much emotional overflow on his cold face. "It''s noon. I''m going to go down and have a look. Are you finished?" Hearing the dissatisfaction in Gu Beichen''s tone, Jane morhu smiled at the corners of her mouth. Gu Beichen came forward and gently hugged Jane Mo''s waist, "what were you thinking just now, so careless?" "It''s all right, just in a daze..." Jane Mo shook her head and didn''t say her thoughts. Gu Beichen stared at her deeply. He just glanced at her and didn''t ask, "is it to eat or send it up?" "Send it up!" Jane answered without thinking. Gu Beichen nodded slightly and walked to the office with Jian Mo in his arms Everything was as usual, but there seemed to be an indescribable atmosphere between them. It seems that they are greedy for the solitude of two people together, and it seems that it is only the most common relationship between husband and wife. "Mo''er..." "Ah Chen!" Gu Beichen and Jian Mo shouted almost at the same time. They looked at each other and frowned slightly. "Say it first!" "Say it first!" Once again, the two people spoke at the same time, as if their hearts were connected. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo spoiled, "you say first..." "When Xiao Yan is born..." Jian Mo said after a little meditation, "let''s take him and the milk bag and have a trip together, OK?" Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually became deep, "how do you suddenly think of travel?" Jane Mo habitually stroked her stomach and said with a smile, "just suddenly thought..." She didn''t need to go to the airport because it was too thick to see the next floor. She didn''t need to go to the nearest destination Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight deeper and deeper, and there was a vortex like emotion in the bottom of his eyes. "Don''t think about time. It''s fun. Just stay in that place more..." Jian Mo''s voice is a little distant. "If you don''t like it, use the same way to find the footprints of the next city..." At last, Jane Mo''s heart gradually turned into a sad mood. I don''t know why... She always thought it was a dream, an unrealistic dream that could not be realized. Is it really sad that spring hurts autumn? Jane Mo''s nose was also sour. She tried to pull the corners of her mouth to make herself look at least not sad. Unfortunately, Gu Beichen still brought all her expressions into his eyes. Sitting beside Jane Mo, Gu Beichen gently took her into his arms and pressed her head on his chest If she doesn''t want him to see her sadness, he won''t. Even if it''s self deception His Mo''er, how can I say if you leave temporarily? Gu Beichen sighed secretly, feeling the uncontrollable slight trembling of his body in his arms, and his heart... Became more and more sad. "Good!" Gu Beichen looked faintly at the dark clouds outside the window. "When Xiaoyan is a little bigger, the company''s affairs will be handed over to Xiao Jing and our family for a walk and go trip." No matter how heavy the fog is, it will dissipate one day Xiao Yan is a little older. He can solve the grievances with Shi Shaoqin. For Mo''er, for Xiao Jie and Xiao Yan... He must be able to! ¡­¡­ Shen Chu was drenched by the cold rain, but she didn''t feel cold at all. She stood there in the porch and let the rain on her body make the floor dizzy and wet. "Xiao Chu!" Luo yueman looked at her daughter and panicked. She looked at Shen Chu and Shen Hangzhi sitting on the sofa smoking. Shen Chu was trembling all over, but he didn''t know whether it was because of the cold rain or the truth he heard when he came back. "Is it true?" Shen Chu''s voice trembled. Luo yueman looked at her daughter, looked away, covered her mouth and wept. "Is it true?" Shen Chu used all his strength to stare at Shen Hangzhi and roared, "is that man Gu silent?" Chapter 654 "Xiaochu," said Luo yueman, who was already sobbing, and his tears covered his face full of cowardice, "things in the past have been going on for so many years. If you''re doing well now, don''t care." Shen Chu smiled, really sad smile She looked at the "mother" in despair. She really wanted to laugh! As a woman, dodder flower, she can understand! But... Because she is attached to a man, she can be so calm and light about her daughter''s past... What else is there in her world except herself? Shen Chu moved her eyes and looked at Shen Hangzhi. She walked forward step by step On the ground, there are wet footprints, clearly showing the sadness under the heavy. Standing under the steps leading to the living room, the heavy legs as if filled with lead can no longer be lifted. "Whether you love your mother or not..." Shen Chu tried to restrain the tears in his eyes. "Whether you don''t treat me properly, I''m your daughter... But I keep your blood after all!" The hoarse trembling was reflected in the roaring voice. Shen Chu has almost stood on the edge of the cliff, and his collapsed mood only needs one step "How can you treat me so badly?" Shen Chu roared, "you and Gu murhuai, for the sake of interests, that''s your hobby and longing... But why, why destroy me?" The voice of questioning echoed in the huge villa, "you can hide me, you can hide it all the time... Why, why do you have to pretend to be heard by me?" Luo yueman suddenly widened his eyes. In his sight, he looked at Shen Chu incredulously, "Xiao Chu, what are you talking about?" "What did I say?" Shen Chu sneered, ''ho'', looked at Luo yueman with scarlet eyes, pointed to Shen Hangzhi and shouted, "why don''t you ask this, the man who makes you love so humble that even your daughter can be used as a chip, what did he do?" Luo yueman looked blankly at Shen Hangzhi Shen Hangzhi continued to smoke, as if the questioning had nothing to do with him at the moment. "Sailing?" Luo yueman asked softly in a choked voice. Shen Hangzhi didn''t look at her, but looked at Shen Chu and said, "I lied to you, but I don''t want to make you more painful!" Then he twisted out the cigarette butt in the ashtray. "It''s better for an old man who doesn''t know who it is than to let you know it''s from gummer''s arms?" Shen Chu only felt dizzy for a while, as if the world was gray, "then why don''t you hide it all your life!" She said gnashing her teeth. Shen Hangzhi got up and walked slowly to Shen Chu. "Xiao Chu, don''t blame me... If you want to blame me, you can only blame Gu Beichen!" He said coldly, "if it wasn''t for him, how could you suffer from this?" "Next, do you want to say..." Shen Chu still clenched his teeth. "Everything I have today is caused by Beichen. I should hate him?" "Isn''t it?" Shen hang raised his eyebrows and sneered. Shen Chu smiled and smiled bitterly. "Do you still want to use me? You dream!" If it was two months ago, maybe... Shen Hangzhi''s words could really make her blinded eyes see all this, which was completely caused by Beichen as the starting point. But now... She won''t! Shen Hangzhi frowned slightly at Shen Chu. Obviously, he didn''t expect her reaction. "You are to blame for JK''s demise..." Shen Chu said with gnashing teeth. "Do you think that if you deliberately let me hear that Gu muhuai is the one who is strong in me, I will be crazy and aimless revenge?" The sentence that makes Luo Hang''s face more and more confused. "Strong... Strong?" Luo yueman looked at Shen Hangzhi, "Hangzhi, didn''t you say it was drunk...?" Shen Hangzhi ignored Luo yueman and just looked at Shen Chu, "I''m drunk and pestering. Why, now I buckle my hat?" "Ho!" Shen Chu coldly stepped back and was completely desperate for his father and his mother. Shen Hangzhi said with a sneer, "I''m not good. I won''t make it better for all the people involved... Including you!" As soon as Shen Chu heard this, he raised his hand angrily and wanted to fan it However, he was caught by one of Shen Hang''s wrists and pushed along with the trend "Xiao Chu!" Luo yueman exclaimed and saw that Shen Chu had sat down on the ground. His waist knocked on the steps, but Shen Chu didn''t feel any pain at the moment. "I really want to... Drain all my blood!" Shen Chu sneered, but he didn''t know whether it was self mockery or something. "I don''t care how you want to use the past things..." Shen Chu''s eyes have never been firm. "What if people all over the world know? I won''t be used by you again!" She slightly tilted her head and looked at Shen Hangzhi, "I won''t live according to your track..." then, she looked at the crying Luo yueman and said nothing, and there was no need to say anything. Shen Chu got up from the ground and dragged his weak body out This family never belonged to her. As for mother''s love... Ha ha! She should wake up You don''t need to make excuses for yourself, saying that you will become so sharp because of your mother. The thunder of "boom" came, and the rain outside was heavier. Shen Chu stood at the door and didn''t move. She tilted her head and let the cold rain pour on her body It''s cold! Shen Chu closed her eyes. The hot tears spilled from the closed eyes, burning the skin on her cheek, and finally came out in the bitter faint at the corner of her mouth "Clang!" In the villa, there was the sound of things breaking. "Shen Hangzhi, I fought with you..." then came Luo yueman''s sharp roar. Shen Chu''s sarcasm spread from the corner of her mouth. She hung her head, opened her eyes and walked to the car step by step Come on, she can''t take care of it anymore. Everyone should be responsible for their own life. That''s her mother''s choice... She also has the right to choose to stay away from her mother''s humble world. Cars, shuttling through the streets in the rain. The mobile phone is ringing in the bag, again and again Shen Chu finally drove to lanzeyuan. She didn''t know how she got here. She just looked at the words "lanzeyuan" and couldn''t express the irony. The mobile phone rang again. Shen Chu looked at the bag on the co driver''s seat. After a long time, he couldn''t go in and touched out the mobile phone. Dozens of missed calls. Before Shen Chu opened it, another call came in. It''s Jane Mo''s! Looking at the flashing name, Shen Chu''s nose was very sour. She inhaled and tried to keep a stable mood. She answered the phone, "hello?" "Where are you? Are you back today?" Shen Chu looked up and forced back his tears. "What''s the matter, something?" She asked in a frivolous voice. "Yes!" Jane Mo answered, "I''ll wait for you in the company and talk to you..." she paused, "wait until you come back!" Chapter 655 "I still need to be busy here..." Shen Chu breathed softly. "I''ll go back in more than one or two hours." Jane Mo looked at the time. "Well, I''ll wait for you in the design department office at three." "Good!" Shen Chu answered and hung up. She looked at the sign of "lanzeyuan" again, gritted her teeth, forcibly pulled back her sight, started the car and drove to her apartment I took a shower, changed my clothes, and painted myself with exquisite makeup Shen Chu looked at himself in the mirror and closed his eyes. If I didn''t give myself a reason to tell Beichen what happened to her, wouldn''t she fall to this point today? If she firmly loves Beichen and doesn''t want to get more, won''t she bear today''s sadness? If ha-ha! Where did it come from? Slowly opened his eyes and looked at himself in the mirror. Shen Chu only felt that no matter how exquisite the makeup was, it could not cover up an already dirty body and a dirty heart. Hehe The biological father, for the sake of interests, sent his daughter to the bed of a man who was enough to be her father... Is her life sad or lamentable? Or, poor! Shen Chu took a deep breath and turned around The door of the apartment closed gently, as if it had closed a door in the past. Jane is right. No one can stop you from choosing the life you want... Only you can stop it! She ate this dose of soul chicken soup When Shen Chu returned to the emperor, it was almost three o''clock. Standing in the elevator, the copper yellow mirror reflected her figure. She looked sideways... There was a little redness in the bottom of her eyes. The whole person didn''t seem to have just experienced the pain of the truth. Just leave sadness to yourself. Show it to others. People who don''t understand you feel hypocritical, and people who understand you worry... Why? The elevator arrived at the floor of the design department, and Shen Chu stepped out When the talent is at the door, he hears the cheerful voice from the design department. Shen Chu stood at the door and looked at Jian Mo leaning on the work grid. He was chatting with several people about some interesting design stories. On his face, he smiled and expressed his opinions enthusiastically. Shen Chu didn''t move, so he looked at Jian Mo and gradually lost focus. Jane Mo has been pursuing this... But she has never achieved it. Perhaps this is what Shaochen once said, her personality charm. "Alas, the first sister is here." Someone said suddenly. Jane Mo looked back, and there was a residual smile on her face. "Coming..." she said hello, then turned back and said to the surrounding people, "that''s all for today, but there will be a charge for the next class." As soon as everyone heard this, they burst into laughter and teased Jian Mo one by one. As the president''s wife, they also quarreled with them about the small money. Shen Chu''s complicated mind and Jian Mo enter her temporary office. Someone has "flattered" and courteously brought water and coffee in. When they arrive, they don''t forget to remind Jian Mo and have the opportunity to tell them about the humanized architectural theory. "The opera house is over today..." "That''s not what I''m looking for you." Jane Mo said with a smile, "you are also a person from UCL. I''m very relieved." Shen Chu pulled down the corners of his mouth and asked proudly, "why?" Jane Mo hung her eyes and turned the glass in her hand, thinking about how to start. "If you have anything, just say it." Shen Chu said in a rebellious way. Jane Mo raised her eyes and found that her topic was quite abrupt no matter how she said it, so she didn''t detour, "Shen Chu, I want to talk to you about Mo Shaochen..." ¡­¡­ On a gloomy rainy day, for those who have nothing to do, the biggest pastime is playing cards. Due to the poor harvest of golden clover poppy, the goods in the whole Southeast Asia are in short supply recently... In addition, the Mo palace has made a share recently, which is even more bloody in the calm surface world. "Get rich..." Shen Hao played a card with a cigarette in his mouth. "Touch!" Shanzi was not polite at all. "When the news came out, the fifth copy was given to the Chen family... Recently, the Chen family was turned upside down by dissatisfied people. You say, we have been out of stock for a long time." "Yes, brother Hao..." a younger brother hurried to answer, "if this goes on, the brothers have no food... Shit! Just five shares, the price of the goods is really going up, so they can''t afford the goods." Shen Hao played the cigarette ash. "Play cards well. If you don''t, get out of here!" As soon as the card players listen, they dare not say this annoying thing However, as Shen Hao''s first think tank, Shanzi doesn''t care. "I think now that it is said that the Mo palace is engaged in the Chen family because of someone, is it true?" Shanzi sighed and touched a deck of cards from Shen Hao. The news on the road is sometimes the most informed. Some people say that with the help of the Chen family, the Mo palace wants to connect with the Dragon owl through the relationship between Chen Xuan, Li family and Gu Beichen. But no one can say what it is for Shen Hao was silent. While thinking about what Shanzi said, he didn''t forget to play cards. "Brother Hao, there is really nothing to use in the Li family..." Shanzi said unintentionally, "Hey, Gu Beichen is also a hard bone, and we can''t touch it." "Shanzi, you said this all around. Isn''t it the same as you didn''t say it?" Some people were dissatisfied, "Li family and Gu Beichen, who dares to touch in Los Angeles? Don''t you want to die?" Who dares to meet a dragon in the dark? It can be said that the listener is unintentional and the listener is intentional Shen Hao''s mind was full of things. After a few rounds, he lost miserably. "Shit, don''t fight..." Shen Hao got up and looked at the younger brothers who were watching. "Come on, one of you. I''ll go out and get some air." "Brother Hao, where are you going on this rainy day?" Shanzi frowned. Shen Hao didn''t look back. "Just walk around and you continue to play." At the same time, the other person had taken his coat and walked out while wearing it. Shanzi looked at each other one by one. Someone frowned and asked, "brother Hao, what''s the matter?" Shanzi looked at the questioner and said, "what do you care so much? Play cards... Don''t roll!" "Fight, fight, fight!" Inside, the atmosphere was strange at the moment when Shen Hao suddenly left and was covered up by the sound of mahjong Shen Hao drove away and the destination was obvious... Spencer noble school! "Please show me your ID card and the information of students'' parents!" The guard verified Shen Hao''s identity. Shen Hao took out his certificate. The guard carefully verified the authenticity and information of the certificate and opened the door for Shen Hao Before Shen Hao parked the car, he saw a proud, soft and cute figure under the open-air shed in the distance, and the corners of his mouth could not help but raise a sinister radian. The game that originally belonged to the children had no challenge in Jian Jie''s eyes. He looked around with lack of interest When he saw Shen Hao coming towards him, he picked up his small eyebrows and asked with bright black pupils, "uncle, you won''t ask me again... Where is Jia Mengting?" Chapter 656 Shen Hao frowned slightly. Looking at Jian Jie, he couldn''t help laughing, "do you remember..." Not only remember him, but also remember that he came last time for his eldest brother''s children. When Jian Jie heard Shen Hao''s question, he turned his mouth and was obviously dissatisfied, "I have a good memory." Shen Hao looked at Jian Jie and narrowed his eyes At the right time, a teacher came over. "Excuse me, which child''s parent are you?" Shen Hao was calm. "I''m Jia Mengting''s uncle. Come and see her." "Jia Mengting has always been picked up by him..." another teacher came over and greeted Shen Hao with a smile. "Mr. Shen, Jia Mengting is dancing. Do you need me to take you there?" "No, I''ll wait!" Shen Hao nodded with the teacher and then looked at Jian Jie. "I think you''re boring, too. Why don''t we go and have a chat?" Jian Jie looked back at the children playing games and the teacher. The former teacher was obviously alert in her eyes. She looked at the place Shen Hao pointed to, which was also within the scope of her line of sight... In addition, she was the parent of the school child. She didn''t object directly, but just looked at Jian Jie. "Teacher, I''ll wait with this uncle!" Jane Jie said wisely. The teacher was still worried, but finally nodded and agreed. Shen Hao poked his hand and motioned Jian Jie looked like a little proud and charming, but he still put his small hand in Shen Hao''s palm... Big and small, walked to the swing chair under the big umbrella not far away. "Miss Qiu, is there anything wrong?" The teacher who later confirmed Shen Hao''s identity asked. Mr. Qiu shook his head, "I didn''t know what happened just now, so I felt a little uneasy..." "You think so much." The teacher smiled and said, "I''ll see if Jia Mengting''s dance class is over." "Well, good!" Mr. Qiu nodded and couldn''t help looking at Jian Jie and Shen Hao. She turned around and saw a gardener in a raincoat walking by Mr. Qiu and the gardener gave a slight sign before they went to do something else. Chen Shao has arranged so many people in Spencer. With the prevention and control of the school, it is impossible for young master Xiaojie to have an accident, isn''t it? Mr. Qiu looked back and saw that he had reached the big one and the small one under the big umbrella before he went to the children playing games. "Eat?" Shen Hao sat down next to Jian Jie and took out a lollipop from his pocket. Jian Jie looked at it and shook his head. "It''s all for children." "..." Shen Hao was puzzled, "aren''t you a child yourself?" "Old is!" Jane Jie shrugged her small shoulders. "But I don''t like sweets." As soon as Shen Hao listened, the lollipop he held was a little embarrassed. "Children don''t like candy and sweets. I''m still the first one." With that, he took back his hand, pulled away the sugar paper and threw it into his mouth. "Sometimes when I''m addicted to smoking, I like to eat sugar, or my mouth doesn''t taste..." Shen Hao supported his arms on the swing chair, his feet shaking. Jian Jie was shaken by him. He just tilted his head and looked at Shen Hao with bright black pupils. Shen Hao doesn''t want to admit that he has some psychological straight hair seen by a child Unfortunately, he was really seen by Jane Jie. "Why are you looking at me like that?" Shen Hao frowned discontentedly. Jane Jie said calmly, "I''m thinking about how long you''ll be. I can''t help telling me the purpose of your coming today!" "Huh?" Shen Hao looked at Jian Jie suspiciously. Jian Jie turned his mouth, took back his sight, looked at the rain outside, and beat the already withered and yellow leaves more depressed. "You came to me today, not Jia Mengting?" Although it was a question, the little guy''s eyes had told Shen Hao that he was sure. "In fact, as soon as you come in, your goal has been very clear..." Jane Jie fanned his eyes. "Although you look very tangled." Shen Hao has a headache. He doesn''t know how high Gu Beichen''s IQ is, but how old his son is, just like a human spirit. Is it really good? "Come on, why did you come to me?" Jian Jie asked with a smile. The smile was sweet, harmless and soft, just like a porcelain doll. Shen Hao took the lollipop out of his mouth. "There''s a problem that bothers me and can''t be solved..." "And then?" Jane Jie has obvious vigilance in the fundus of her eyes. He determined that the purpose of Shen Hao was him, and he knew that the purpose of Shen Hao''s coming today must not be simple. "You said..." "Whatever the problem," Jian Jie interrupted Shen Hao, "don''t worry about me." "..." Shen Hao twitched at the corners of his mouth. "First of all, last time you said you wanted to give me a favor... You can''t make a play for yourself in order to pay it back?" said Jane Jie "..." Shen Hao was stunned and immediately helped his forehead with an obvious headache. Jian Jie looked at him with a smile, "uncle, you are an adult. You can''t keep your word!" Shen Hao looked at Jian Jie helplessly. In his flashing eyes, there was obviously something else There are rules on the road! Although, in today''s society, for the sake of interests, many people have no friendship to say. But he Shen Hao, from the day he came out, hasn''t said anything and didn''t count! This kid, whether you know what he does or not, can really hold him three inches Shen Hao leaned lazily on the swing chair and looked ahead. "I really want to hit your attention today... However," he glanced at Jian Jie. "After entering school, I gave up." Although I don''t know why Gu Beichen didn''t announce the existence of the imp, I can probably guess. Since he can block all the news, he wants to take the kid away. Whether it can be done or not is one thing. I''m afraid the trouble in the later stage will be devastating. Interests are important, but you have to live. "Then we are still friends..." Jane Jie said with a slight chin. Shen Hao sighed, "Los Angeles is an international metropolis in the eyes of the world. It''s bright and intoxicating..." he seemed to sigh, "but in fact, the brighter the place, the dirtier it is!" Shen Hao put the lollipop back into his mouth. The sweet taste can''t cover the ugliness of human nature. Jane Jie''s small pink mouth, did not speak. Daddy didn''t give him what happened in the end, but his current identity had not been exposed. He had guessed that someone would make up his mind. "Uncle..." Jian Jie''s black pupil looked at Shen Hao seriously. Shen Hao also looked at him and raised his eyebrows with doubt in his eyes. After waiting for a while, seeing that Jianjie didn''t speak, he frowned and continued to wait After Jane Jie said her little mouth, she asked, "you haven''t told anyone about my existence?" Chapter 657 Shen Hao was stunned, then shook his head, "no!" Jane Jie was obviously relieved. "That''s good." "Why, are you afraid that others will know your existence?" Shen Hao asked with an evil smile at the corner of his mouth. Jane Jie rolled her eyes. "You''ve moved your mind, not to mention others?" After a few seconds, you looked at Fang Rui and sighed, "it''s really a good time for you to squint, isn''t it?" "You can''t envy the problem of IQ!" Jane Jie raised her eyebrows and said proudly on her small face. As soon as Shen Hao heard this, he immediately frowned, "I can understand... Are you belittling my IQ?" "You said it yourself..." "You boy!" Shen Hao immediately stood up and looked as if he wanted to fight. The laughter came crisp, mixed with the sound of rain, especially attractive. Several four lines looked over almost at the same time, and then, with doubts on their faces, they continued to do what they were doing. ¡­¡­ Shen Chu was about to drink with a coffee cup. When he heard Jian Mo mention Mo Shaochen, he couldn''t help but be slightly stunned. There was an unconscious warning in the bottom of his eyes and looked at her "You came to me for him?" "Sort of..." Jane Mo said ambiguously. Shen Chu looked deeply, then drank a cup of coffee, "are you for Li Xiaoyue?" Although she was asking, her tone was affirmative. Jane Mo sighed softly, moved her body, and found a comfortable position on the sofa. "It doesn''t count, it doesn''t count!" Shen Chu frowned and looked at Jian Mo suspiciously "Everyone has a past," Jian Mo said, looking at Shen Chu, "but you can''t stick to the past all the time..." Shen Chu''s eyebrows wrinkled more tightly. After all, he didn''t know the truth until noon. The hand holding the coffee cup tightened, and almost spilled the coffee because of too much force Jian Mo looked at the movement on Shen Chu''s hand and thought it was about Mo Shaochen, but she didn''t think much. "But the past will always be branded in my heart, won''t it?" Shen Chu lowered her eyes and said in a numb voice, "for example..." she raised her eyes and looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight, "have you ever thought about the relationship between Zixiao and Beichen?" "Thought about it, but when I really thought about it, I was worried that the relationship between ah Chen and Zixiao would have problems because of me." Jian Mo smiled with self mockery, "obviously, there is something wrong..." Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo deeply. How can this woman say the problem as long as it''s light? Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu, who was a little distracted, and continued, "in fact, I have no position to talk to you about Mo Shaochen." Shen Chu put down his coffee cup and didn''t speak. "However, some things, someone always tears the hole first..." Jane Mo''s voice was a little sad. Yesterday, I spent a short half hour with Li Xiaoyue. She looked at such a strong good friend and was weak at that moment "Girl, I''ve thought a lot about this step." Li Xiaoyue pulled a smile at the corners of her mouth. Even if it was bitter, she was smiling. "Look back, I don''t blame others for everything." "Xiao Yue..." Jian Mo felt terrible. Li Xiaoyue continued to smile, "no matter when Yang Ziyu threatened me because of the case, and then Gu Beichen solved the problem for me, in fact, I didn''t face up to my heart." Jane murmured her lips and frowned at her "Later, kill..." Li Xiaoyue''s obvious eyes dimmed. "Although it was designed by someone, I am now a person with a criminal record." "Xiao Yue, do you have to make you so unbearable?" Jane Mo asked with some anger. Li Xiaoyue smiled at herself and shook her head. "It''s not so unbearable, but I need to face the reality." Li Xiao just swallowed the words she wanted and held them tightly "Girl, we''re friends, aren''t we?" Li Xiaoyue asked. Jane Mo lips, "nonsense, is a lifetime!" Li Xiaoyue rarely showed a comfortable smile, but then turned into a faint sadness, "girl, I really fell in love with Mo Shaochen... Even if I don''t deserve it now!" "What do you deserve to love someone?" Jian Mo immediately said angrily, "Li Xiaoyue, I''m leaving. Do you just want to show me how to belittle yourself?" Li Xiaoyue sighed, "no..." her thoughts were a little free. "If he can..." she paused, "it can make me love. Even if I have low self-esteem, I also want to fight for it." Jian Mo''s nose is sour immediately. Even if she knows the end, she also wants to fight for it... This is Li Xiaoyue. "But there is someone in his heart and he can''t let go!" Li Xiaoyue converged her sight and looked at Jian Mo, "you and I both know who that person is?" Jane Mo was silent. "Girl, just help me..." Li Xiaoyue said firmly in her eyes, "try to make them together!" "Why?" Jane Mo resisted. Everyone is selfish. Although she knows that the person in Mo Shaochen''s heart is Shen Chu... However, she hopes that Xiao Yue can be happy. Li Xiaoyue sighed, "girl, if there is a person in a person''s heart, he will always hide that person... Even if he will accept others for some reason." Jane Mo was silent again, which she knew better than anyone. "Maybe they are together, which is the relief for me..." Li Xiaoyue tried to calm herself, but the sadness and helplessness in her voice could not be concealed. She smiled, so she pretended to be relaxed and said, "of course, if he thinks he can put it down, wait until I come back and take him back!" Jian Mo looks at Li Xiaoyue as if she wants to see through her heart "Will you abandon yourself when you go abroad?" Jane Mo asked sharply. Li Xiaoyue''s smile became bleak. In this world, the person who knows her best is Jian Mo! "Just for you, I will try my best..." Li Xiaoyue''s words echoed in Jane''s mind. She looked at Shen Chu and said, "if you have ideas about Shaochen, give each other a chance, won''t you?" She raised her eyebrows and said deliberately, "or do you still think about ah Chen!" "Jane Mo!" Shen Chu immediately frowned, "even you have no right to erase the past between me and Beichen... What do you mean by saying so?" "It doesn''t mean anything, nor does it mean anything to show off." Jane Mo smiled. "Of course, I''m not worried that you are my threat." Shen Chu secretly bit his teeth. He said to Jian Mo that he was not uncomfortable with Gu Beichen. It was all a lie. "Shen Chu, Shaochen is a good man. You know better than anyone..." Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu with a faint eye. "If you don''t love him, why don''t you let him die?" Chapter 658 Mo palace. After the rainstorm, the sky was as fresh as it had been washed. The poison factory in Mo palace is in a hurry. Everyone is working hard to make their own procedures in their own posts The tension here is busy, but it can''t resist the tense atmosphere in the temporary operating room. Time, in a little bit of the past The operation, which began in the morning, has lasted for several hours. However, there was no movement inside Shi Shaoqin has been standing in front of the window of the corridor lens, looking at the workers in and out of the factory. In his narrow eyes, he is calm and calm on the sea without wind and waves, showing the harmony under the warmth. But everyone knows that the surge hidden in his body is waiting for the opportunity. Sunshine, a little offset Finally, it has been at the same level as the sea level. The afterglow of the red glow dyed the whole sky scarlet, bright and gorgeous, but it was bloody in the cold. No one dares to disturb Shi Shaoqin, even though... He has been standing there for nine hours! Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back and the closed door of the operating room. His eyebrows were locked. At the right time, the mobile phone was buzzing in his pocket. He subconsciously looked at Shi Shaoqin, then turned away from a room and answered the phone "Brother Sen, I found something unexpected." On the phone, the voice of the person in charge left in Los Angeles came. Mohsen''s eyes were slightly heavy, "what?" "After the Chen family came out, someone did move..." the man said, "after I ruled it out, I found that one thing was very strange." "Say!" "Shen Hao, the second head of Hongxing society in Los Angeles, has been to an aristocratic school today." The man said, "we found that the daughter of Hongxing society also went to school there." Morson frowned immediately. "What''s the point of giving me this?" "Today is not a holiday, nor is it a weekend..." the man clearly analyzed the problem. "Since I put my daughter there, I naturally want to protect it." Morson didn''t speak and waited for the other party to continue. "Shen Hao didn''t bring his daughter out for no reason. What are you going to do?" "You mean..." Mo Sen''s eyes are slightly cold, "it''s possible that it has something to do with recent things?" "Maybe!" The man didn''t say absolutely, "because the place is special, if you want to make an in-depth investigation, I''m afraid someone else..." Mosen''s head is tilted. The sunset is infinitely good. People want to bathe in such peace. "I see." Mosen answered, "I''ll report to Qin Shao." He didn''t wait for the other party to say anything, so he hung up Mohsen narrowed his eyes slightly... What can be involved in a school? However, as the person in charge of Los Angeles said... Shen Hao can''t go to a school for no reason. After all... These are very recent times. ¡­¡­ Jane Jie ate and looked out of the window The sky in Los Angeles has dimmed down, and the street lights are on... It has turned light, and the rain is pattering. "Xiao Jie, your fruit!" Aunt LAN put a piece of fruit in front of Jane Jie. "Thank you, Granny LAN!" Jane Jie immediately smiled. Aunt LAN smiled and said nothing more. She continued to distribute fruit to other children Jane Jay''s mind revolved as she ate. After eating the fruit, Jian Jie left the restaurant and sent a text message to Gu Beichen while walking: Daddy, is it convenient to call me? Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo in the kitchen and went upstairs to the study. While closing the door, he dialed Jane Jie: "what''s the matter?" Jian Jie evaded the important and said what Shen Hao was looking for him. He didn''t say who it was, but just said his worries, "Daddy, is someone trying to make an idea about me?" Gu Beichen immediately frowned, "who is it?" Jane Jekyll opened her mouth and said whether to say it or not. "Xiao Jie!" Gu Beichen''s voice sank slightly. Jian Jie was lying on the windowsill. His black pupil looked at the drizzle under the light and said, "Shen Hao... Do you know Daddy?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil has become dark and bottomless. "When did you know him?" "It''s been several months..." Jian Jie said about the last time he met Shen Hao. "He shouldn''t really think about me. After all... For several months, he has a chance." Gu Beichen naturally knows that there is still no news of Xiaojie''s identity outside, which shows that Shen Hao didn''t mention it to others. It''s for the agreement with Xiaojie, or for any other purpose It can only be said that prevention is not as strong as he thought. The knock on the door interrupted Gu Beichen''s thoughts. He turned around and saw Jian Mo open the door "You can eat!" Gu Beichen''s eyes softened, nodded, and said to Jian Jie on the phone, "I''ll handle it. Be careful yourself, huh?" ¡°OK£¡¡± Jane Jie also heard Jane Mo''s voice. Without saying more, she hung up the phone. Gu Beichen walked out and sent a text message to Xiao Jing Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and went downstairs together. Aunt Luo had brought up the prepared food. In due time, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone rang. Seeing that it was mo Shaochen, he picked it up. "Are you free this evening?" Asked Mo Shaochen. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, "what''s up?" "I haven''t been sitting together for a long time. I''ll wait for the Blues..." Mo Shaochen said. "Take Jane Mo with you." Gu Beichen slightly pondered and answered, "OK!" ¡­¡­ Smith finished the heart surgery, closed his eyes and put his hand down He carefully performed cardiac resuscitation with his hand. When he saw the new heart beating slightly, there was no relaxation in the fundus of his eyes. Smith was wet with tension. He looked at the nurse staring at the instrument and asked, "data!" "Heart rate..." the instrument nurse reported the data on the instrument. Several doctors listened attentively for fear that any data would directly affect the results of the operation. "Dr. Smith, the data is stable..." the first deputy''s voice trembled because of nervousness. When the sweat on Smith''s forehead was about to flow down, the nurse beside him quickly wiped it off. After swallowing his tense and dignified breath, Smith said, "ready to sew..." Not daring to borrow the hand of others, on the operating table, Smith, who has rarely participated in the final work of the operation, did not dare to prepare carelessly to sew the wound. Suddenly "Didi" ''drop - '' The harsh voice echoed in the dignified operating room. I heard the instrument nurse yell in horror, "the patient''s heart rate is dropping..." and then hurriedly shouted, "the patient''s heart stops beating!" The medical staff immediately looked shocked. Smith was an old doctor with rich clinical experience Just when the sound of "dripping" came, he had stopped stitching and turned to first aid Chapter 659 The atmosphere in the operating room has become stiff. Everyone held their breath and carried out cardiac resuscitation and first aid in an orderly manner in tension The first deputy doctor looked at the hanging display screen from time to time, on which there were imported instrument data. Smith concentrated on the resuscitation of the new heart, and his breathing became more and more dignified as Shi Juxi had no heartbeat. The nurse carefully wiped the sweat on his forehead. I don''t know if it was because he was too nervous. A corner of the gauze slightly blocked Smith''s sight. Smith ''Teng'' for a moment, his eyes slashed across the nurse "Sorry, sorry!" The nurse quickly retracted her hand and apologized. Smith didn''t have time to talk to her. He just continued to move in his hand "Drop, drop..." "The patient''s heart beats again!" The instrument nurse''s nervous but joyful voice came. Suddenly, in such a large operating room, everyone mentioned his heart and put it back slightly. Smith watched calmly and listened to the report from the instrument nurse... Until the data could support the suture. "Ready to sew!" Smith dropped his words and put his hand aside. The instrument nurse had put the tools for threading into his hand. Smith still didn''t dare to borrow other people''s hands for everything. "Report the data once every three seconds..." Smith ordered calmly while sewing. Three seconds, it''s almost the time when the voice falls, and it''s time to continue reporting But everyone knows that Shi juechi''s situation at the moment can''t tolerate the slightest difference. Smith didn''t breathe a sigh of relief from beginning to end. He was concentrating on the final finishing work "Cut!" Smith''s voice revealed a dignified opening. The first deputy took the surgical scissors and cut them in the corresponding position Gently, even if you listen carefully, you may not be able to hear anything. However, at this moment, it fell heavily in everyone''s heart "The heart rate is temporarily stable!" The instrument nurse breathed a long sigh, and her body was a little weak. The thrill just now scared everyone to death "It''s not time to relax!" Smith said rather heavily, "within 24 hours, it depends on the patient''s acceptance of the heart." All the people with heavy eyes looked at each other and nodded one after another. Night, has been calm down. Xu Shi has just experienced a storm. This night, except for the busy figures in the factory, it is particularly quiet. Shi juechi''s surgery lasted as long as Shi Shaoqin stood at the end of the corridor... He didn''t move, just like a sculpture. The "bang" sound of opening the door broke the empty corridor, especially treacherous. Shi Shaoqin turned around almost at the same time. When Smith came out, his narrow eyes suddenly gathered and opened. He didn''t move! Smith looked around, then came to Shi Shaoqin Morson also hurried to follow. Seeing the obvious fatigue on Smith''s face, he frowned and didn''t ask much. "How?" Asked Smith, who was always the least patient when he approached. Smith nodded. "The operation is successful, but if you can get through the dangerous period, you have to..." he paused and said solemnly, "it depends on whether the patient''s body will reject the heart." Shi Shaoqin closed his eyes. At that moment, a touch of complex emotion flashed on his handsome face, which had no expression. When I open it again, everything returns to normal... It gives me the illusion that I just saw his mood change, but I was dazzled. Without saying anything, Shi Shaoqin just looked at Smith and passed him away Smith frowned and wondered what was going on. He looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back after he left, and then looked at Mosen "Dr. Smith, hard work!" Mohsen bowed slightly and saluted, "never less. I hope you can worry more." After that, he lifted up, looked at Smith, turned around and left with Shi Shaoqin. No one is born without feelings... So is Qin Shao. Is by no means his only relative "Qin Shao," Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin, who had stepped into the study first, "let the kitchen cook?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but his eyes fell on a picture frame on the desk and gradually became deep and bottomless. Morson looked at the frame. Although he couldn''t see the picture, he knew... It was a picture of Qin Shao and jueshao when they were children. And the only photo left! It is said that... After that picture, everything has changed. No one in Mo palace dares to explore Qin Shao''s past However, there are always airtight walls in this world. Rumors or rumors spread deliberately... But all the people who know what happened at the beginning are dead except for absolutely few! "How''s La?" Shi Shaoqin asked. Morson was inspired, looked at Shi Shaoqin and pondered slightly. He didn''t know whether the person in charge of Tirol would talk about the noble school at this time. "There''s still a chain reaction when the Chen family comes out..." Mosen added, and maybe it''s more appropriate when the dangerous period is over. Slowly, the sight on Shisen''s face shifted. Mosen swallowed involuntarily, dared not look at each other, and lowered his eyes slightly. "Child, eight months?" Shi Shaoqin hooked up some corners of his mouth and spilled a cold smile. Morson raised his eyes and answered, "almost..." Shi Shaoqin''s smile at the corners of his mouth became a little stronger, but there was no temperature in the corners of his mouth. "The more greedy you expect to get, the more interesting it will be when you lose..." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes fell on the photo again. On it, two little boys of the same height smiled more and more brightly, but he felt extremely ironic. "Beauty is used to destroy..." The ghostly voice echoed in the space, cold and ruthless to bloodthirsty! ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen and Jian Mo went to Blues after dinner. Jane Mo has many memories of this place But the best thing to remember is "Hey, as soon as I got here, I thought of someone cheating me with an out of print design book!" Jian Mo looked proud and charming, and Yu Guang left Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen looked calm and indifferent, "who is it?" With a light sigh, he spoiled Jane Mo and walked inside, "who dares not to give what my wife wants?" He said, his thin lips overflowing with laughter, "we have money, whether he is out of print or treasure, buy!" "Local tyrant..." Jane morhu smiled, and her eyes were stained with happiness. However, when she saw the two people who took the wine out of the wine cellar one by one, Jane Mo''s smile was a little stiff on her face Chapter 660 Jian Mo was stunned when she saw Shen Chu, and then looked at Gu Beichen around her. Gu Beichen gently moved his hand on her waist, didn''t speak, just hugged her forward "Do you mind sitting together?" Mo Shaochen looked at Jian Mo and asked with a smile. Jian Mo is a generous and decent person in the end. Besides, the relationship with Shen Chu is not as tense as before. I just couldn''t react for a moment. After all, I mentioned Mo Shaochen in the afternoon and we''ll be together this evening... Do you want to be so fast? Shaking her head, Jian Mo greeted Shen Chu with a smile, but her heart was secretly disgusted: Kui Xiaoyue was deeply in love with Mo Shaochen. Mom, this talent can''t wait with Shen Chu. Is it really good? I think so, Jane foam also knows that he is make complaints about himself. Xiaoyue can see clearly that Mo Shaochen can''t let Shen Chu go... Then, simply promote the two of them and let Xiaoyue put it down by herself. "I asked someone to cook milk for you," Shen Chu opened the wine himself. "Thanks, no need." "I don''t want to thank you either..." Jane Mo skimmed. "Do you want to think so much?" Shen Chu shrugged and didn''t care Now two people get along, is such a "tit for tat"! Gu Beichen didn''t think so, but Mo Shaochen looked deep. He took the wine bottle and cup and poured three cups. Gu Beichen took the glass, glanced at Shen Chu and asked, "why do you suddenly want to sit down?" "I''ve been busy," Mo Shaochen raised his glass and motioned, "some things have settled. Thinking about Jian Mo''s pregnancy, I don''t have time to say congratulations." Jane Mo''s milk was also sent, and they drank. "Dust settled?" Gu Beichen smiled softly, and his eyes looked at Mo Shaochen deeply. Mo Shaochen looked at Shen Chu and didn''t continue the topic. "It''s mainly to see the procedure of the emperor''s full control of JK..." "It''s already going on," Gu Beichen said calmly. "Don''t meddle in this matter." Mo Shaochen knew what Gu Beichen was worried about. He just nodded and turned the topic again It''s sitting around, but it''s really chatting... The topics of several people are all over the world, involving everything. "I heard..." Mo Shaochen suddenly looked deep. "Did you buy a piece of land in the new area?" "It''s not normal for me to buy land?" Gu Beichen picked his eyebrow, and there was a thin smile in the ink pupil. Mo Shaochen also smiled, but took a deep look at Jian mo Jane Mo didn''t think much, so she told Gu Beichen that it was normal for him to buy land. One third of the real estate in Los Angeles is owned by the emperor. Now we need to build a new area outside the Fifth Ring Road. How can the emperor let it go? Several people talked while drinking. For a while, a bottle of wine came to the end "Go down with me and pick another bottle?" Asked Mo Shaochen. Gu Beichen nodded and went down the wine cellar with Mo Shaochen Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen. After their figure didn''t enter the wine cellar, he opened his mouth: "are you moving very fast?" "Didn''t you say you should learn to fight?" Shen Chu spoke proudly. Jane Mo smiled, "tut Tut, that means, have you achieved the right result?" She raised her eyebrows. "What do you think?" Shen Chu didn''t answer directly. "I don''t think so?" "What''s your expression? Do you want us together or not?" "I can''t decide whether I want it or not..." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "I just hope to see my heart and what do you want?" "I want stability..." The two people spoke very fast. You came and I talked to each other, and their eyes were glued together. Neither of them was satisfied with the other. "Stability is created by two people, not just one person..." Jian Mo sneered. "Shen Chu, walking out of one vortex is not to step into another." "How do you know this is still a vortex?" Shen Chu also sneered. Jane Mo frowned slightly, as if she couldn''t understand Shen Chu Looking at her muddled appearance, Shen Chu smiled, "Jian Mo, people are selfish... All hope that good things can be left to themselves or the people around them." Jane murmured at the corner of her lower lip and sighed softly, "sorry..." She sends a message to Xiaoyue. She also hopes that Shen Chu can put down the past and live happily... Just as she hopes Xiaoyue can. After all, they have the same painful experience. But she is still partial to Xiaoyue. I hope Mo Shaochen has an idea about Xiaoyue, and the two can come together in the future. Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo and felt sad She hasn''t got the world love like Jane Mo, and she doesn''t have a true friend who worries about her friends! Now looking back, her life is like a tuoxiang. There is nothing left except the shriveled smell. "You don''t have to say sorry to me," Shen Chu laughed at himself. "Jane Mo, I know what you think..." Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu with doubts in her eyes. "I will not deliberately treat Shaochen..." Shen Chu said slowly. "If we have a chance to finally come together, I will not let go. However, if I still can''t love, I won''t possess it in order to get it." Jian Mo looks at Shen Chu in surprise "I''m really tired after all these years of confusion." There was a sad smile on the corner of Shen Chu''s mouth, "I want to try to let go... Let go of myself." "What do you mean?" Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu with burning eyes, "you''re right about Mo Shaochen..." "I''ve never loved him," Shen Chu said firmly. "Like... Maybe! But it''s not love." Jane Mo tightened her eyebrows, but she couldn''t tell why. "Once, I was also a simple girl who yearned for, and I also had dreams." Shen Chu laughed with self mockery, "it''s just that dreams have been trampled on by reality." She let out a long sigh and shrugged. "Sometimes people wake up, it''s a moment... Maybe today I know something that makes me feel the darkest thing in life, so let''s meet the Jedi!" Jane Mo suddenly ''cluttered'' in her heart, relying on the woman''s intuition... She felt that Shen Chu knew that Gu muhuai was the one who had once strengthened her. Some things don''t need to be said too clearly. Just understand them. "Jian Mo," Shen Chu suddenly stretched out his hand, "I hope you can know me again when I can know myself again." She glanced at the corners of her mouth and said with some embarrassment, "I hope I can make friends with you, too." Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu and her hand. Finally... She didn''t say anything, but smiled and shook her hand. On the stairs up the cellar, Mo Shaochen grabbed a bottle of wine in his hand and smiled astringently at the corners of his mouth Gu Beichen looked back at him. His eyes were slightly deep and his voice was not loud, but he asked, "in fact, I want to know what your feelings for Li Xiaoyue are without Shen Chu?" Chapter 661 Mo Shaochen raised his eyes and looked at Gu Beichen. They looked at each other. At that moment, there was no too much emotion. They are cousins. Because of the death of Mo Shaochen''s mother Cen Yulan and father Mo Huai, he can be said to have grown up in Gu''s family. No matter later because of Shen Chu, there was a gap or something between the two brothers, but the understanding under the family affection doesn''t mean you don''t understand. "I don''t want to pity her..." Mo Shaochen said faintly, making people unable to understand his mood at the moment. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and the edge of his thin lips was even more crooked. "It''s really not easy..." his voice was a little sarcastic. "Lawyer Mo, who has always been calm, also has unclear times." Then he didn''t take care of Mo Shaochen, so he turned and walked up Mo Shaochen frowned and looked at Gu Beichen''s back. At that moment, he had an unspeakable blockage in his heart. "Beichen," Mo Shaochen asked with a tight eyebrow as Gu Beichen was about to step out of the cellar, "what do you mean?" Gu Beichen stopped, looked up at the darkness in front and sighed, "nothing..." paused. He then said, "since Shen Chu has put down me and wants to try to get along with you, let''s get along and have a look!" Although he didn''t know what Li Xiaoyue and Mo''er talked about for half an hour, he didn''t know Li Xiaoyue, but he knew Mo''er. Mor''er went to Shen Chu this afternoon. What are you talking about? The opera house has been completed. What else can we talk about except Mo Shaochen? He was a confused man who had dealt with his feelings at the beginning. It was obviously ridiculous to give Shaochen guidance Only let Shaochen explore by himself. Maybe he really only sympathizes with Li Xiaoyue. Sympathy is not love. If you confuse your heart because of the guidance of him and Mo''er, Li Xiaoyue will not be happy in the end. Shen Chu and Jian Mo have started other topics. Seeing Gu Beichen and Mo Shaochen coming up, they look at each other with a sly smile and have fun one after another. "It takes so long to pick a bottle of wine..." Shen Chu slightly raised his eyebrows. "Shaochen, shouldn''t you go straight to the theme and get another bottle of wine you just liked?" Then he glanced at the wine in Mo Shaochen''s hand, "tut Tut, it''s really that bottle..." She smiled and implied that it was the bottle. Why did they go so long. Jane Mo leaned slightly on the sofa, stroked her stomach, smiled at the two men who had just sat down and said, "you two won''t be eavesdropping on our chat?" Mo Shaochen was a little embarrassed. Gu Beichen looked more at ease, "listen to you, I never need to ''steal'' to listen..." As soon as Jian Mo heard this, he looked at Shen Chu and smiled. Both of them had a look of ''I''m very happy''. For them, they will hear the conversation just now. Maybe it''s because they are relieved, they will feel it doesn''t matter The four drank again and chatted. The rain outside didn''t know when it had stopped. When the four people played the blues, the night was thick, but it couldn''t resist the noise of people who spent the night wandering on the road. Xiao Jing didn''t know when he came. When Jian Mo saw him, he looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously. Xiao Jing opened the door for the two men. Without waiting for Gu Beichen to speak, he explained with a smile: "although it doesn''t matter if Chen Shao drinks this wine, there are young lady and young master Xiaoyan. He''s good to be careful!" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen again and muttered, "it seems that there has been no wine driving..." Gu Beichen had a sad look on Youjun''s face. After holding Jane Mo on the bus, he went to the other side to get on the bus. "Xiao Jing, you should ask your boss to increase your salary..." Jian Mo thinks it''s not easy to be a special assistant these days. You should be proficient in all 18 weapons and be on call. Xiao Jing''s eyes were already bright. He looked at the back seat from the rear-view mirror and hurriedly said, "forget the salary. Just give me all my year-end bonuses this year." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she had endured more than Jun When she spoke recently, she also liked to talk about things with the year-end bonus, which was completely influenced by Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing. "Young lady, if you don''t speak, I''ll take it as your promise." Xiao Jing took the opportunity to face. Tut Tut, although it''s very unpleasant to be called by chenshao to sleep, if he gets back the year-end bonus, he can still wait in the villa yard all night tonight, and then send chenshao and Jian Mo to work tomorrow! "Me?" Jane Mo was stunned and didn''t react for a moment. "Should you ask ah Chen?" Xiao Jing had uncontrollable excitement on his face. He smiled and looked at the rearview mirror. "First of all, madam, please allow me to remind... You are now the emperor''s largest shareholder." He was a little sad. "Besides, you can''t talk to Chen Shao with sun..." Xiao Jing was too excited and completely took Gu Beichen as the air. When he reacted, he quickly changed his mouth, "Chen Shao dotes on you most. He must listen to what you say." Jane Mo felt the black breath from the people around her, and felt that she was about to burst out laughing "Why don''t you continue when you haven''t finished?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips opened gently, revealing an emotion that people can''t hear thoroughly. Xiao Jing''s heart tightened, but his face pretended, "ah? What are you talking about? What are you talking about?" "For example..." Gu Beichen''s voice was low to evil, full of black fog, "... I''m in front of Mo''er, and I''m not the same as my grandson?" "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth and secretly feigned Gu Beichen several times, "Chen Shao, I don''t have such an idea!" "Well, you just think so!" Gu Beichen coldly hissed at the end of the sentence. Xiao Jing wailed for a while, blaming himself for being squeezed too much on weekdays. He bounced back and couldn''t stop the momentum "Xiao Jing..." Jian Mo couldn''t hold back his smile. "I think you not only don''t expect to get back this year''s year-end bonus, you may have to withhold next year''s! Ha ha..." "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth and said with a bitter face, "madam, you and Chen Shao are so black. Is it really good?" "Ha ha..." Laughter, because the mood is happy, echoed in the car, all the way, through the streets of Los Angeles, driving to the mid level villa The rain will stop at last. Darkness will be replaced by dawn. Day and night, waiting is a kind of sad suffering Because Shi Shaoqin has been working outside the temporary severe hospital, the whole left behind doctors and nurses on duty dare not breathe. Time, minute by minute From night to day. From sunrise to sunset Shi Shaoqin raised his hand slightly, leaving less than an hour before the most dangerous 24 hours! Chapter 662 All people''s hearts mentioned their voices because of the proximity of time. They stared at the instruments one by one and dared not make any mistakes. The medical staff here are all hired with a lot of money... Under the interests, there is no room for too much thinking. But when I got here, I knew that everything was OK. If there is any accident, even within the normal range... In the end, they can only face one fate. Life to earn money, life to spend! Smith came in from the outside and saw that Shi Shaoqin was still there. He was under great pressure. At the same time, he also admired this man. For those who have surgery, they have been standing for more than ten hours because they are highly concentrated and can''t think much at all. But he can also wait so long Since the morning, he has been waiting here for more than ten hours. "What follow-up problems will there be after the dangerous period?" While Shi Shaoqin spoke faintly, he glanced at Smith. If he didn''t notice, the natural control of people''s arrogance had been revealed. Smith''s face was calm. "The patient''s body is not as optimistic as expected. The success of the operation or passing the dangerous period does not mean that he will not be persecuted by his heart in his life." "I know..." Shi Shaoqin looked back and fell in front. His voice became gloomy. "I asked, followed by the possibility of rejection!" Smith looked puzzled. "I can''t answer that." According to the controllable and uncontrollable factors such as body and life, no one can guarantee that when will the external dirty body and its own body be excluded or will never appear Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak any more. There was no expression on his beautiful face. People couldn''t see what he was thinking at the moment. Silence, more and more frozen the air. Smith felt his nose awkwardly. Seeing that Shi Shaoqin didn''t intend to talk to him, he turned and entered the instrument monitoring room. At the right time, Shi Shaoqin got up and went out under the confused sight of the people When Mosen saw him coming out, he was slightly stunned at first, and then came forward: "Qin Shao, never less him..." "I don''t know!" Shi Shaoqin''s tone was a little heavy, even a little grumpy. Kani and the sample, who had been guarding the door, stood there, looked at Shi Shaoqin, then looked at each other, and their faces were dignified. Time is at the last minute, walking very slowly The sample couldn''t bear to watch the time. If Shi Shaoqin wasn''t in the corridor, he could jump because of worry. Carney''s heart is like a fast stone. Compared with the simple mind of the sample, he thinks more If they don''t pass the dangerous period, they know what will spread from here, but they can''t stop it. This is not only the harm to many people, but also the destruction of the ink palace! Suddenly, Carney''s expression suddenly stagnated without thinking, and suddenly pushed open the door of the observation room outside the intensive care unit He stared at the big glass that could see the intensive care unit, and his face became bad for a moment. Someone flashed in from his side. Carney only felt a flower in front of him. Shi Shaoqin had stepped in front of the window The atmosphere condensed to the freezing point, and Smith''s face was not good. He had been rescuing Shi juechi. No one thought that at the last moment, Shi juechi would have heart rejection Shi Shaoqin''s face had begun to become grim. A storm, as everyone knew, seemed to come at the next moment. "The patient''s heart stopped..." "The patient''s heart beats again..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± While Smith was giving first aid, the nervous voice of the nurse kept coming from his ear. The night is like ink splashing, and the rich color cannot be melted. In the poison factory, everyone knows the time of Shi juechi''s dangerous period. While working one by one, they are all thinking "If you never leave, we..." someone couldn''t bear the pressure and whispered to the people around him. The man''s body suddenly shook and predicted the future, which made them feel afraid. If it''s just death, maybe there''s not so much pain However, everyone knows that if Shi Shaoqin goes crazy, you will only feel that death is a luxury. "Drop, drop, drop..." Smith looked at the normal data on the instrument, closed his eyes, prayed with God secretly, and then opened his eyes with a reassuring smile on the corner of his mouth. The medical staff participating in the first aid felt like crying at this moment At this moment, not only the patients, but also they have walked around from the gate of death! Smith dragged his highly nervous and tired body out of the intensive care unit. Looking at Shi Shaoqin who couldn''t see his psychology outside, he smiled with relief. "I''ve passed the dangerous period temporarily and take good care of myself... There should be no problem in recent years." Only by living after death can we see the light of survival Smith suddenly thought of Chinese idioms and felt that they were very suitable for Shi Jue Chi at the moment. Shi Shaoqin stopped, his narrow eyes narrowed slightly, and then calmly recovered... Without speaking or even looking at Shi Juxi, he turned and left Leaving Smith in the same place, I don''t know what happened? The sample has red eyes. As soon as Shi Shaoqin left, he came forward and hugged Smith, "thank you, doctor, I love you so much!" Carney smiled at Smith, who was more and more stunned by the "confession" of the sample, and said with a smile: "he is stupid. When expressing his gratitude, he always says'' love you '', but gratitude has no other meaning." Dr. Smith, whose hair was gray, was relieved However, when the little sample was too happy and took a hard ''Baji'' on Smith''s face, the old man felt that he had just finished cardiac first aid for the patient, and he had to do it himself! Fortunately, the sample released Smith when he was about to get angry... Lying on the visiting window and looking at the calm Shi juechi. At night, the sea splashed on the beach and reef, making a rhythmic sound. Shi Shaoqin stood on the reef and looked at the sea surface rendered with ink space with deep eyes. Gradually, it seemed to integrate him. I don''t know how long it took. Morson came over and just stood quietly behind him without talking. "How long will it take for Juxi to recover?" Shi Shaoqin converged his eyes and turned to look at Morson. "Dr. Smith said, one or two months!" Morrison replied. "Chi won enough time for them to look so good." Mosen lowered his eyes and didn''t speak... Qin Shao didn''t need his answer at this moment. Shi Shaoqin turned around again and looked at the sea. Morson raised his eyes and looked at the tall figure shrouded in black silence... What he thought was what the person in charge of Los Angeles said. Should we... Tell Qin Shao Spencer''s discovery? Chapter 663 The waves pounded the rocks, and the sound seemed to be getting louder and louder in the dark night. Silence makes the two figures standing under the ink space particularly strange, but they seem to be very coordinated. Morson looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back like this, just as for so many years, most of the time In this case, there is no one except him! Mohsen slightly converged his complex eyes and lowered his eyes Say! It is possible to find something unexpected. Is it related to Gu Beichen and Jian Mo? Don''t say Maybe I missed a great opportunity to make Gu Beichen and Jian Mo completely doomed! Although the children in Hongxing club are also in Spencer, Shen Hao went too suddenly... Isn''t he? Mosen raised his eyes and looked back at Shi Shaoqin again He suddenly had a bold assumption, and this assumption, perhaps... For many things, has become a turning point. "Qin Shao..." Suddenly, a respectful voice came, interrupting Morson''s thoughts and what he was about to say. Shi Shaoqin slightly deviated from his sight and looked down, waiting for the man to continue. "Dr. Smith is looking for you!" Shi Shaoqin astringed his eyes and didn''t move... After a while, he turned around, walked down the reef indifferently, and walked slowly to the temporary operation area of the ancient castle. "What''s up?" The voice of Shi Shaoqin''s light Yi was coldly looking down. Smith''s face was heavy. "The operation has been completed. There are more than 20 people involved in this operation. Now everyone stays. It''s not necessary." "Means I can let you go?" Shi Shaoqin was light again, but there was a trace of danger at the end of his words. Smith nodded. "After all, we have been separated from our family for a long time..." he paused and said, "I know there are good doctors here, so..." He didn''t go on. He felt the pressure in the air. Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, just took the coffee sent by the servant and drank There was nothing mixed in the dark coffee. The bitter taste entered the throat and spread instantly. The whole nerve jumped with it. Smith clenched his teeth. "I''ll stay!" He seemed to have made a big decision, "wait until the patient is stable... Let others go home and reunite with their families first?" Shi Shaoqin laid down his coffee cup leisurely and slowly raised his eyes In the narrow eyes, there was a faint smile like nothing, but that smile was cold to the bone. "Juechi is not all right," Shi Shaoqin said, and even the corners of his beautiful mouth raised slightly. "You can''t leave anyone!" Clearly gentle and gentle words, but with a cold breath. Falling in Smith''s ear, his heart jumped suddenly, and then fell to the bottom in an instant ¡­¡­ On weekends in Los Angeles, it''s always noisy and colorful. Early in the morning, the major media received a release announcing that Su Anyuan accepted Jian Mo as his adopted daughter. Jian Mo first became the most valuable man in Los Angeles. After Gu Beichen''s wife, she will become a music family and the daughter of the Su family. "Good morning, husband..." Jane Mo woke up in Gu Beichen''s arms, bleary eyed. "Good morning..." Gu Beichen''s voice was soft and magnetic. He leaned slightly and gently kissed Jian Mo at the corner of his mouth. His voice became more and more enchanting and said, "Happy Birthday!" Jane Mo opened her eyes and looked at the handsome face close at hand. She was dissatisfied, "that''s it?" "What do you want?" Gu Beichen asked with a smile. His voice was not heavy or light, but also very slow... Because he was close to Jane Mo, the hot air spread on her face, itching and ambiguous. "No gifts?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows with expectation in her eyes. This is her first birthday after they are really together! Gu Beichen rubbed Jian Mo''s cheek with his nose. When he couldn''t grasp the weight, his thin lip followed Jane Mo''s body moved slightly, and she didn''t know whether the pregnant woman was too lack of "love". She was very sensitive now... As long as Gu Beichen stirred her, her whole body was like a fire. "What do you want?" Gu Beichen didn''t seem to find the difference of Jian Mo, and her thin lips had reached her ears, stirring up her emotions unscrupulously. Jane Mo was dissatisfied, "boring!" Gu Beichen''s smile turned on the corner of his mouth, and his eyes were full of infatuation Jane Mo endured hard, and he was not much better himself. "Take me as a gift and give it to you... OK?" While Gu Beichen deliberately asked, the tip of his tongue poked out, and the tip of his tongue, which was warm and wet, crossed Jian Mo''s earrings. Jian Mo''s breathing had begun to be heavy. He pushed Gu Beichen and said proudly in his eyes, "you are mine. Can you be a gift again?" Gu Beichen''s smile deepened, and his lips had come to Jian Mo''s lips Quenched, he didn''t say anything and kissed Jane Mo deeply. A long kiss opens an early morning... But it will never end each other''s love. Of course, Gu Beichen will not have the best gift for you. Of course, he will not love you all his life. After washing, Jane Mo heard her mobile phone ring, picked it up and opened it... There were several text messages. Jane Jie: Mommy, give birth quickly! Thank you for being my mommy. I love you! Also for Xiao Yan, Happy Birthday Mommy! Jane Mozhe smiled. The milk bag is the warmest on her birthday all year round Li Xiaoyue: happy birthday, girl! I hope the next birthday, I will stand in front of you. Xiangwan: sister Mo, let me say "Happy Birthday" to you! Mu Xiaoran Jian Mo turned over the text messages of her acquaintances one by one and smiled at the corners of her mouth, which was brighter than the sun and flowers penetrating the thick clouds outside. The last one is from Su Jun Li Su Junli: happy birthday. This is the sixth time I''ve told you. I''m glad that I''ve been able to spend six birthdays with you since I realized it... Well, is this the only thing that bothers your family? Jian Mo looked at Su Junli''s text message with complexity in her heart There is warmth, guilt, sweetness... And a touch of sadness. Such a good man, he is just late in her life! Gu Beichen came down from his study and saw Jian Mo''s side face from his angle Looking at the look on her face, he frowned slightly and walked over, "what''s the matter?" With that, the eagle glanced at the mobile phone in Jian Mo''s hand. Jane Mo flashed cunning in her eyes and handed her mobile phone to Gu Beichen... The interface stayed on Su Junli''s text message. Gu Beichen took it with a little doubt and looked down Chapter 664 Looking at Gu Beichen''s indifference, his face suddenly darkened, and the smile at the corners of Jian Mo''s mouth was already filled with cunning. "You are all mine," Gu Beichen snorted coldly. "Su sanshao can only take advantage of his words!" Jane Mo picked her eyebrows and mended her knife, "but what he said is the truth..." "..." Gu Beichen twitched at the corner of his mouth, sat down next to Jane Mo, and his fingers flicked her forehead, "little woman with revenge!" Jane Mo smiled and lay on Gu Beichen It''s a good day! You don''t need secrets with him. You can turn "jealousy" into flirtation Because each other''s love for each other is fully assured and will not be affected by anything or people. "I''ll pick you up later," Gu Beichen said. "I''ll go directly to Su''s house after I finish dealing with things." "Good!" Jian Mo answered with a smile and mended the knife again. "I have a doubt..." she blinked her eyes and asked with a smile, "I''m separated from Jun. will you be in no mood to deal with things today?" Who is Gu Beichen? Can Jian Mo''s careful thinking make him understand? He said calmly, "no!" Jane Mo skimmed her lips. She was a little dissatisfied with his answer "I can only deal with it faster..." Gu Beichen said faintly, with danger in his voice. "It''s definitely my dereliction of duty to let my wife stay with another man for too long." The smile on the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth turned to open, turned his head and kissed Gu Beichen on his face At the right time, Xiao Yan in her stomach seemed to feel the love between her mother and her father and kicked Jane Mo''s belly excitedly. For a woman, a lover, a child, a home... Sometimes that''s all. ¡­¡­ Shen Hao was lying on some old sofa, and his ears were full of the noise of his little brothers. In the room, it is smoky and people can''t open their eyes. He was bored adjusting the TV, one by one, and finally stopped on Los Angeles TV A picture of Su Junli opening the door to Jian Mo and Jian Mo getting off with a big belly. "Brother Hao," Shanzi took the beer and handed Shen Hao a can, "do you want to start with Jianmo?" Shen Hao glanced at Shanzi, looked up and filled half a can of beer before saying, "who wants to die, who is willing to provoke." Shanzi smiled, looked at the enlarged picture on TV and said, "speaking of, we have a lot of fate with Jane mo... Alas?" He suddenly brightened his eyes and looked at Shen Hao, "anyway, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo have today, and we have done our best. Why not..." "Get out!" Shen Hao tilted his eyes. "Who was going to send Jane Mo to bed?" He inquired, "although Gu Beichen fell asleep and has now achieved positive results... Do you think he will really give you a grand prize if you ask for credit?" "I''m just kidding..." Shanzi looked at a group of younger brothers who played cards and fought against the landlord. "Isn''t it out of stock now? Are the brothers getting moldy and growing mushrooms?" Shen Hao leaned back on the sofa. "Shanzi, have you ever thought of jumping out?" "Jump out?" Shanzi was stunned and then smiled, "brother Hao, entering this pit and washing white... It''s not easy to talk about it?" As a think tank, he knows Shen Hao best. "Brother Hao, even if we are tired, our brothers still have to eat to support our family..." "Yes..." Shen Hao said sadly, raised his head slightly and drank the rest of the beer in one breath. If he were a qualified boss, he shouldn''t be kind to Jane and Jay But shit, he doesn''t know what''s wrong. He''s "fell in love with that kid at first sight" and can''t do it! "Think of another way." Shen Hao said, pinching the beer cans together, and then accurately threw them into the trash can. Shanzi obviously had a heavy face. "Brother Hao, the people in the North District are getting more and more important in the hall. If we can''t get the goods this time..." He didn''t go on, just sighed deeply. Everywhere is the law of the jungle. Brother Hao has become softer and softer these years. It''s really not a good thing for people who mix in the road. ¡­¡­ After Su Jun left to pick up Jian Mo, Gu Beichen planned to go to the company. Xiao Jing came to pick it up "Chen Shao," Xiao Jingqi looked in the rearview mirror while driving the car, "go to the company first or magic first?" Gu Beichen looked at the time, "go to magic first!" "OK." Xiao Jing answered and went to magic, the jewelry company under the emperor. "How''s the school defense going again?" On the way, Gu Beichen asked faintly while looking at the stock market trend chart in his notebook. "It was all done last night," Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen from the rearview mirror. "The security was all replaced by the people from brother Xiao, and the system was also made by Xiao Qiang and Xie Haitian..." Gu Beichen raised his eyes slightly, looked deep into his eyes, and looked at the computer screen again, "take more precautions manually." "I understand..." Xiao Jing answered. There are top hackers in Shi Shaoqin. Xiaoqiang and Haitian are not rivals. They can only resist meaningfully The most important thing is the careful deployment around young master Jie. Although... Shen Hao was worried for a moment, it was only related to the shortage of goods on the road, not necessarily. "Chen Shao, do you want to talk to Shen Hao?" Xiao Jing asked anxiously. Gu Beichen''s movement in his hand stopped and looked out of the window The fleeting street view has no ornamental value at all under the noisy and numerous flow of people and vehicles. "Don''t use it first," Gu Beichen pondered for a moment. "Since he didn''t say, he won''t speak... Talking may be counterproductive and want to cover up." "Yes!" Xiao Jing answered and didn''t speak again. Car, stop at magic jewelry flagship store. The manager knew that Gu Beichen would come today and had been waiting in the lobby. When he saw the car, he signaled the shopping guide and took out the things he had done. "President!" The manager opened the dark purple flannelette box with magic jewelry logo on it, "every procedure comes out according to your requirements." Gu Beichen looked down In the middle of the box, there is an ornament like a brooch and a hairpin. It blooms like a flower. It is exquisite, but dazzling. Gu Beichen picked it up. Under the light, a circle of fine diamonds on the flowers and leaves gave off dazzling light Xiao Jing stood not far away, looked at the ornaments in Beichen''s hand, pretended to be casual and asked, "Chen Shao, what flower is this?" "Jasmine..." Gu Beichen said softly with thin lips. This hairpin was designed by him... The day after he returned Lin''s necklace to Su Jun. Xiao Jing has taken out his mobile phone and turned on the search engine At the moment of seeing jasmine''s flower language, Xiao Jing said "tut tut" secretly Chen Shao gives a gift, also vows sovereignty and is full of possessiveness. Should it be romantic... Or overbearing? Chapter 665 Su Jun leaves to pick up Jian Mo and goes to Su''s house. Unexpectedly, he sees Su Anyuan and Lu Hanyu in the same frame. Jian Mo heard Su Junli mention about Su Anyuan and Lu Hanyu slightly... Although not much, she also knew that when they were young, they also loved vigorously. Unfortunately, not every relationship can maintain heat. "Here comes little Jane?" Jane Mo looked for her voice and said hello with a smile, "sister Hua!" Like Lu Hangui, sister Hua has loved Jian Mo since she was in the hospital... Unfortunately, it''s not the third young master''s. She looked at Jian Mo''s big belly and was as envious as Lu Hanyu! If it belongs to the third young master, she has to have the opportunity to bring it... It''s beautiful to think about it. "Sister Hua," Su Junli said with a smile, "saliva is flowing out!" As soon as sister Hua heard this, she stared angrily at Su Junli. She felt unspeakable heartache for him. "Everyone is waiting. Hurry over..." sister Hua said and walked to the greenhouse in the manor with Su Junli and Jian mo. At the end of October, due to the rain, the temperature in Los Angeles is particularly low and chilly these days. It''s obvious not to be warm outside in the greenhouse, but the atmosphere is a little strange Fortunately, everyone was used to the scene. When they saw Jane Mo coming, they didn''t show anything. "It''s good to think of a daughter-in-law like you," Lu said with a smile, holding Jian Mo''s hand and sitting down beside him. "Now she''s a daughter, and it''s the same." Jane Mo lowered her eyes with some guilt, "aunt, I''m sorry." "Emotional things can''t be forced. What can I be sorry for?" Lu Hanyu laughed and scolded, "still call aunt?" Jian Mo looked at Lu Han, smiled and shouted, "Mom!" Lu Hanyu''s heart suddenly changed. "I''ve been thinking of a daughter for more than half a hundred years, but it makes me think of it..." At that moment, Jane felt an unspeakable taste in her heart. Xu Shi''s mother has been away for nearly five years. This "mother" cry seems relaxed, but it makes him mixed. Although the beginning of "recognizing women" is to let Su Junli put down Jian mo However, whether Su Zhenqi, Su Anyuan or Lu Hanyu, they are all happy that Jian Mo has become a member of the Su family. And Jane Mo didn''t expect... That God would give her such a way to make up for her lost family affection. It is said that only those who are persistent and firm will be more favored by God. So... It''s true! Jian Mo and Su Junli stroll in the Su family manor. There are reporters squatting outside... Familiar media also enter one after another to prepare for the shooting of tonight''s reception. "Tired or not?" Su Jun asked. Jane Mo shook her head with a smile, "when pregnant with milk bags, it''s not so pretentious..." Su Junli thought of that time and said with a helpless smile, "that''s Xiaojie!" "He ran out of cunning in his stomach, so he specially came to annoy me after birth." Jane Mo skimmed her lips. Su Jun spilled a warm smile from the corner of his mouth. However, looking at the line of sight ahead, he was vaguely disappointed, "time passes so fast... It seems that you gave birth to Xiaojie yesterday." "Yes..." Jane Mo said slowly. "What happened yesterday should be put down today..." Su Jun left Qingrun''s mouth. "After all, there is life tomorrow." Jane Mo stopped, "Jun Li, although selfish, but... I really hope you put it down." "Mo Mo," Su Junli smiled with a relaxed and evil spirit on his face, "he didn''t put it down before, just because he didn''t see your true happiness. However, when Gu Beichen brought you back with ''death'', and then you were pregnant with Xiaoyan for a few months... If you don''t put it down, it''s just unwilling to put it down in the past." Jian Mo looked at Su Junli and suddenly felt that she had never understood this gentle man "Because I can''t get it, I''m unwilling... But I know it''s just a little thought." Su Junli said with a smile, "besides, now that you are my sister, what else can I do?" Jian Mo wants to see through whether Su Junli is forced to smile, but his smile is too pure. What she sees is only relief and nothing else. With a little peace of mind, Su Junli can put her down and then start a love journey of her own, which is what she wants to see most. She is happy. She is selfish and greedy. She hopes everyone around her can be happy. "Xiao Mo, Jun Li..." Lu''s voice came, "dinner is ready, come in and have dinner." Jane Mo turned back and saw Lu Hanyu and her smiling and waving She smiled and nodded, looking at Su Junli around her, "let''s go?" At the same time, she has taken the lead to lift her feet and walk to Lu Hanyu Su Junli didn''t move. He just looked at Jian Mo''s figure with gentle but secluded eyes. He was getting farther and farther away from himself. The smile from the corners of his mouth was gentle and outrageous in the noon sun. The line of sight, looking back deeper and deeper Su Jun''s smile from the corners of his mouth became more and more rich. Momo, I love you... Just, I don''t want you to see it again. ¡­¡­ In Huakang hospital, the atmosphere is dignified. "Go home and live before you leave the hospital?" Li Jiyuan asked Li Jinxi. Li Jinxi didn''t speak and didn''t know what he was thinking. "Jin Xi?" Li Jiyuan shouted softly. "Huh?" Li Jinxi regained his mind in a trance. Looking at Li Jiyuan, his eyes lost the brilliance of the past, and even some stupefied, "Dad, what did you just say?" Li Jiyuan sighed quietly, "I said, there is no one to take care of you. Go home first?" Li Jinxi''s nose suddenly became astringent, took a deep breath, tried to pull the corners of his mouth and nodded. Looking at the pale smile on his daughter''s face, Li Jiyuan felt uncomfortable. Although angry with the Chen family, I don''t want my daughter to suffer Even if you are angry with Chen Xuan, you can''t really break them up because of the past. Thinking, Li Jiyuan was angry. Chen Xuan said that he would disappear if he disappeared. Even if he didn''t say a word, he couldn''t get through to the phone. "Are you ready?" Li Yunze came in from outside wearing a doctor''s robe. "Wait, I''ll drive you back." "No surgery today?" Li Jinxi asked in a dry voice. Li Yunze smiled and said with an evil spirit: "I have to go to each operation in person. The hospital wants me to be a doctor." Li Jinxi looked at Li Yunze''s narcissistic appearance, and a fairly hearty smile spilled from the corners of his mouth. "Dad, let aunt Qiao clean up my room and I''ll go back to live these days." "Yunze, I''m fine..." Li Jinxi said, "you don''t have to go back with me." Li Yunze looked at Li Jinxi, sighed secretly and calmly said, "let''s talk... Let''s go. I''ll take you back first." With that, the man turned and walked outside the ward. At the right time, the alarm bell at the nurse station rang loudly. The nurse looked at the eye room number. Just about to ring the notification bell in the doctor''s duty area, she saw Li Yunze come out She hurriedly said: "Li Shao, Chu Zixiao ward alarm!" Chapter 666 "I''ll just take Jinxi back," said Li Jiyuan. "Go and have a look." Li Yunze looked at Li Jinxi and finally nodded to Li Jiyuan, "I''ll go back later..." then he turned and strode to Chu Zixiao''s ward. Unlike others, with Gu Beichen''s relationship, Li Yunze naturally pays more attention to Chu Zixiao. Li Yunze pushed Chu Zixiao''s ward door in and saw Zhang Nian looking back and forth inside. When he saw him, he had a blooming surprise on his face. "Li Shao, he just moved, he manually..." Zhang Nian''s excitement broke through the scope of a nurse, "really!" Li Yunze took the disposable medical gloves from one side and put them on, and then checked the periphery of Chu Zixiao Zhang Nian has been standing nearby, with the tension under expectation in his eyes, and has been moving with Li Yunze''s actions. Li Yunze checked it all over, and then said to Zhang Nian: "inform to arrange the inspection room, and the system inspection is needed..." Although a vegetable wakes up by a miracle, it is not impossible. "Well, I''ll go now." Zhang Nian hurriedly answered, opened the door of the sick room, and left in a hurry. Li Yunze slightly and invisibly wrinkled his eyebrows, raised his head, looked at Zhang Nian''s hurried figure, and wondered slightly, but he didn''t think much. He was about to turn around and look at the instrument data. At the right time, the corner of his eye turned to the TV picture It is estimated that Zhang Nian held the remote control reflexively and pressed the mute. There is only picture on the TV. Li Yunze watched as the reporter was interviewing Su Anyuan. Naturally, he mentioned some related issues about the reception of recognizing Jian Mo''s daughter at night... Inevitably, he would also mention the past of Jian Mo and Su Jun. Li Yunze looked at TV and Chu Zixiao. His heart was a little heavy. "If you want to see her, wake up!" Li Yunze''s voice was a little heavy, "Zixiao, Su Junli can put it down. Do you have to torture everyone like this?" In the ward, after Li Yunze''s voice fell, it became quiet Chu Zixiao didn''t wake up and naturally couldn''t answer Li Yunze''s words. "Between people, sometimes, without a little bit of luck, the original fate will dissipate." Li Yunze laughed with self mockery, "in our circle, if you go wrong, you will miss..." Still no one answered him, but Li Yunze didn''t see that when he was distracted, there were data fluctuating up and down on the heart rate instrument. ¡­¡­ A crisp sound of "pa" crossed and slapped Chen Xuan''s face. "You''ve been at ease for so many years. Are you ignoring the foundation of the Chen family for a woman now?" Grandpa Chen looked at Chen Xuan angrily, and his angry body trembled. Chen Xuan didn''t move, or even care, because of the slap and the blood overflowing from the corners of his mouth. His face was burning with pain. His stubble and scarlet eyes made him look sharp under decadence. "For a woman?" Chen xuanleng hissed and looked directly at Grandpa Chen, "Grandpa, I don''t believe... You don''t see that this is the means of Mo palace!" He clenched his teeth and spoke, his breath heavy with anger, and his chest rising and falling. "The bloody rain on the road is normal!" "It''s not that I ignore the foundation of the Chen family. It''s that you are determined to destroy the Chen family!" Chen Xuan couldn''t control his anger. Grandpa Chen was obviously mentioned to the pain by Chen Xuan. He wanted to slap him However, this time Chen Xuan didn''t let him fan He calmly raised his hand without looking at it, and grabbed grandpa Chen''s wrist... Let him break free, but he couldn''t pull it out. Chen Xuan clenched his teeth. "The Chen family doesn''t have this year''s share, and you won''t die of hunger..." he growled, "but Mo Gong deliberately gave the fifth share to the Chen family, just to make the Chen family perish... Grandpa, can''t you see?" Grandpa Chen pulled back his hand with a vicious look in his eyes, "no!" "Huh?" Chen Xuan looked at Grandpa Chen because some of his answers didn''t respond. Grandpa Chen sneered and turned around. There was a chilling light in his fierce eyes. He didn''t say anything to Chen Xuan, but he thought in his heart From what Chen Xuan asked him to do in Chamo palace to what has happened now... He may understand why he has developed to this point? Gu Beichen Is it possible that he is the only one who escaped from the Mo palace in three months. After all, Gu Beichen once disappeared for some time. Grandpa Chen''s body was filled with a terrible breath... His thoughts turned slightly and he had thought. Seeing that Grandpa Chen didn''t intend to pay attention to him, Chen Xuan turned angrily and left Grandpa is stubborn, but he can''t let the Chen family perish in this vortex! Even though, no matter what, he knows very well that the Chen family has no possibility of washing white... And he can''t come back to take over the deep meaning of the Chen family. Chen Xuan''s footsteps suddenly stopped. He looked at Chen Zhaobai in front of him, twisted the center of his eyebrows, and came forward to say hello: "brother!" "Since he decided not to meddle in the affairs of the Chen family," Chen Zhaobai''s eyes were a little dark, "why come back to the muddy water?" He sneered, "aren''t you afraid to stain your noble blood?" When Chen Xuan was said this, he felt a little uncomfortable, but he didn''t argue. Chen Zhaobai leaned slightly, looked ahead and said in a quiet voice, "Chen Xuan, live your own life. Here... You shouldn''t have intervened." "But..." Chen Xuan gritted his teeth. "Grandpa loves you," Chen Zhaobai said coldly. "You know better than anyone whether you look at the face of the Kent family." Chen Xuan suddenly clenched his hand and bit his teeth more and more tightly. Chen Zhaobai glanced at him lightly and continued: "in this world, everyone has his own way of life..." he narrowed his eyes, "especially those who lick blood on the edge of the knife." Chen Xuan leaned over and looked at Chen Zhaobai with a frown, as if he didn''t understand what he was saying at the moment? "There is always a way to live..." Chen Zhaobai said faintly, looked at Chen Xuan, said nothing, and turned away. The setting sun is infinitely good, and the sky is dyed red by static overflow. Chen Xuan stood in the same place and looked at his half brother dully, his eyes getting more and more confused. Because of his mother''s intervention, his brother doesn''t like him. He knows. But there was something in his obvious words just now... What did he want to tell himself? "Elder brother..." Chen Xuan shouted and hurried to catch up, "what do you mean by that?" Chen Zhaobai sneered, "Chen Xuan, my meaning is obvious... Don''t stretch your hand too long." Then he turned to the front, "and you''ve been back for several days. It seems that no one in Los Angeles has called you?" Chen Xuan was stunned and then glanced, "every time I come back, the signal is not blocked by you?" "So," Chen Zhaobai said coldly, "you should leave!" Chen Xuan subconsciously stopped and watched Chen Zhaobai''s figure go farther and farther until it disappeared in the bottom of his eyes He couldn''t figure out what Chen Zhaobai meant, but when he figured it out, it was too late Chapter 667 As a famous music and culture family in Los Angeles, the Su family has its details and history there. In addition, there are many celebrities in the cultural and music circles in the family... A reception to recognize their daughter has surrounded many reporters inside and outside the Su family manor. "Thank you for coming to witness this moment," Su Anyuan said with a smile on his face. Obviously, happiness is not superficial. "I have always felt destined for Xiaomo. Now I am very happy to let her become a member of the Su family." Lu Hanyu is also a decent and dignified smile, holding Jian Mo''s hand and being spoiled by his loving mother. Su Anyuan continued, "from today on, the Su family and chenshao will also officially establish the ''sunshine love fund''!" He glanced at Gu Beichen, "there will be a small concert later, which is a ceremony to start the Fund... This is also our love for Xiaomo, the continuation of all." Applause came, and the sound of shutter and flash came one after another. Although it is common for rich people to set up funds, most of them are to win their reputation However, the Gu family and the Su family set up a love fund for Jian Mo on such a special day. The obvious purpose is much simpler. "It''s nice to have a husband to hold her arm," said Jane What she said was sour and obviously meant something. But the boyfriend around him obviously didn''t buy it. "People''s faces and breasts are real. You''ll return to nature one day. Think again!" "..." the actress suddenly twitched at the corners of her mouth. Someone passed by. She kept an awkward posture and didn''t dare to refute anything. The boyfriend saw her face distorted by her forced calmness, hissed coldly and pulled away his hand, "I''ll say hello to Chen Shao, you go and have something to eat..." Not an inquiry, but an order. Her boyfriend pulled away and walked in the direction of Gu Beichen The actress immediately gritted her teeth and stomach: what''s the matter? You go to kneel and lick others'' Chen Shao, and don''t see if you can''t get on the table. Hum! The actress turned angrily and suddenly stopped She looked ahead with a gentle smile on her face, but looked vaguely at Jian Mo holding Su Anyuan in front of her. Looking at both sides, the actress smiled secretly and walked over with enchanting steps, "in another way, it''s also a satisfaction to leave her in the place closest to her... San Shao, do you think I''m right?" Su Jun took back his sight and looked sideways at the actress. His warm face was still smiling. However, his voice was alienated and said, "it''s the most important to set your own position." The actress twitched uncontrollably at the corners of her mouth, but tried to keep her appearance. "It''s easy to say, but it''s not easy to do... I''m afraid." "Indeed..." Su Junli''s smile deepened, but there was no temperature. He just listened to his still stable words and opened his mouth, "so Lu man is still red even if he has less Chen. But you... Can''t do it." Now, the actress couldn''t hold her head completely and sank her face "Sorry," Su Junli seemed not to know what she had stimulated the actress. "Excuse me!" Without any pause, he turned and walked towards Su Anyuan and his circle The Su family is a big family. Although they don''t live together now, except for those who can''t come back, it''s also very spectacular for the media. Su Anyuan and Gu Beichen jointly set up the "sunshine love fund", which is Jian Mo''s birthday gift today. Naturally, the media will also coax the rest of the Su family to prepare what gifts for the newly added sister. People with clear eyes know that when throwing this stem, in fact, we just want to see what Su Junli has prepared for Jian mo After all, the rumor of the two men''s affair was very popular five years ago. At one time, it was even rumored that the divorce of Jian Mo and Gu Beichen was due to the intervention of Su Junli. And Jian Mo''s "death" and resurrection, as if Su Junli was also mixed with one foot The people of the Su family, as predicted by the media, except for a wreath made by grandpa Su for Jian Mo, which makes people feel warm. Most people send jewelry or throw money directly into the "sunshine love fund". A few in the field of culture just like them and sent Jian Mo some books on architectural design or collections of works collected by famous experts. "Three little," some media can''t wait, "excuse me, what gift have you prepared for this new ''sister'' The word "sister" falls here in Su Junli, which is obviously a little slap in the face. It can be said that Su Jun leaves without changing his face. He is always known to the public... He is warm and alienated from strangers, but he won''t make you think he is impolite. "In addition to investing one million love money into the sunshine love fund, I also prepared a separate gift for Mo Mo..." Su Junli said politely. The eyes of the media are bright, "three little, is it convenient to say what it is?" "Of course..." Su Junli glanced at Jian Mo, and it was obvious that the smile on his face was a lot from his heart. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was slightly deep, and his sharp eyes seemed to penetrate Su Junli at once Su Junli felt Gu Beichen''s eyes and turned to him... In an instant, the lightning and flint between the two men burst. It''s just that you get up fast and close fast. When someone looked over, he just saw that everything was as usual Su Junli took out a necklace from his pocket under the expectation of the crowd. "Can I put it on for you?" When Jian Mo saw the necklace in Su Junli''s hand, she subconsciously glanced at Gu Beichen. There was a fierce light at the bottom of her eyes Gu Beichen has a warning at the bottom of his eyes. It is obvious that Jian Mo refuses But Jane Mo had a charming smile that was so angry that she didn''t pay for her life, "of course!" Su Jun looked at Gu Beichen, and in full view of the public, gently put the double m Necklace he designed on Jian Mo''s neck Everything is natural without any love bath inside, just like a brother wearing it for his sister, that''s all. What else did the media want to catch, but all hope failed. Whether Su Junli, Jian Mo or Gu Beichen... All their performances are so natural. However, naturally, whoever succeeds and who adds blocking will know the cold and warm. Gu Beichen looked at the necklace on Jian Mo''s neck. It was like a lump in his throat... He couldn''t swallow it, so he could only feel uncomfortable. Go back to the necklace in this way! Jian Mo and Gu Beichen looked at each other, only one glance, and she only conveyed a message: stingy! Gu Beichen was more and more dissatisfied. Unfortunately, he could only block himself by means of Su Junli''s "revenge". Chapter 668 "Beichen..." some people who are not afraid of big things at the theater saw Su Zhenqi ask with a smile, "what have you prepared for Xiaomo?" He flirted and looked at the necklace in Jane Mo''s neck. Without Gu Beichen saying anything, Xiao Jing has brought the jewelry box All eyes were attracted by Gu Beichen''s gift. It looked as if it was also a piece of jewelry. People with sharp eyes have seen that Su Junli gave away "Lin" private high-end customization. Naturally, I look forward to what Gu Beichen sent me "The jewelry box looks like magic''s customized version." A woman has whispered. "It''s also customized..." someone said, "magic is a high-end brand under the emperor, but it''s different from Lin... obviously, Su sanshao should pay more attention." "That''s true... After all, it was designed by yourself!" "I don''t know. Chen Shao designed it himself?" Gu Beichen said, "even if you give the same gift to your brother and husband, it has different meanings." "Also......" the first speaker sighed, "who is Gu Beichen? It''s enough for people to envy a woman with his heart and mind. This is the most rare." "Expect nothing..." someone sighed and looked at Gu Beichen one by one. Gu Beichen has opened the jewelry box. Under the eyes of everyone, he takes out the hairpin placed inside It''s not big, but it''s exquisite. Jane Mo''s eyes fell on the hairpin. Some didn''t recognize what the pattern was, so she had been gently worn by Gu Beichen in the upward position of her ear. Due to her pregnancy, her dress today is mainly relaxed. There is no decoration on her curled hair... Her whole body, only her ears, earrings and wedding rings on her hands. Now it''s good. Gu Beichen and Su Junli have matched it completely Few people can see the style of the hairpin. They just look at the past and feel very exquisite. "I went to magic this morning and didn''t see this..." "Chen Shao should be specially made for Jian Mo?" There is jealousy in a woman''s voice. The voice of discussion came. Everyone wanted to see the style of the hairpin clearly, but they couldn''t see clearly Close to the Luhan station, you can see the pattern of the card very clearly The complicated petals are so lifelike that if you ignore the broken diamond, it is a real Jasmine blooming. The design and superposition of each petal, from any point of view, is full of vitality... With the "sunshine love fund", it makes her sigh with profound meaning. What a beautiful expectation is this? The flowers blooming in the sun will never fade... They emit a faint fragrance that is not strong, intoxicating the people around them and warming each other''s hearts. "It''s a jasmine!" Lu Hanyu smiled and joked, "Beichen, if you have a strong desire for possession, you are not afraid of my Xiaomo feeling bound?" Gu Beichen Mo Tong looked at Jian Mo deeply, "when she needs me, I will be by her side... When she is tired, I will be behind her." After a pause, he looked at her eyes as deep as a vortex, "if she feels bound... I will stand far away and watch her fly!" Jian Mo looked up at Gu Beichen, his eyes stuck with him, and his heart was full of joy... Because of this joy, his eyes were filled with a thin layer of water mist. "Of course..." Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised an evil radian, "holding her line can only be in my hand." Overbearing words made everyone laugh, but all the women present, who didn''t want to get such a love that can let go but won''t let go? Lu Hanyu looked at Su Junli and didn''t let go of the astringency across his eyes. She knows, but Gu Beichen''s words make his son''s steps, even if he won''t go back to forgetting in the Jianghu, but... He won''t take a step forward any more. Perhaps, my sister... Is also a kind of company! With a big belly, Jane stood for a while After a while, Gu Beichen sent him to the rest area to keep Luo Xiaomi company and prevent the media or others from disturbing Jian mo. Of course, special warning... Don''t pester your little aunt for an exclusive interview. "He must not be my uncle, hum!" Luo Xiaomi was dissatisfied, but he had rubbed against Jian Mo, smiled and asked, "little aunt, do you know the flower language of Jasmine?" Jane Mo shook her head and planned to check her mobile phone Since she came back, ah Chen started with a bunch of flowers every day. She felt that the man had nothing to do all day and was studying the flower language. "Don''t check, I''ve checked..." Luo Xiaomi said excitedly, "pick some key points!" Jian Mo looked at Luo Xiaomi with leisure, "say it!" "The flower language of Jasmine has..." Luo Xiaomi began to count excitedly, "you are mine, you are my life, love you as life... Tut tut!" Luo Xiaomi shook his head and sighed, "uncle, while expressing his love, the most important thing is to announce to everyone that you are his?" She hummed, "if a man is infatuated, it''s really not covered... Women sigh that they are inferior to him." Jane Mo raised her hand and gently touched the hairpin on her head... She didn''t really look at it, but at this moment, the feeling in her heart can''t be expressed by words. Looking at Gu Beichen, who is socializing, his cool, carved handsome face has no expression except indifference. Since marrying him, it seems that... All the expressions of this man have been given to her, leaving the outside world with an indifferent face. "Little aunt, let me tell you... This hairpin is very beautiful." Luo Xiaomi said excitedly, "I can guarantee that there will be a decorative wind of jasmine flowers all over the country soon." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s line of sight, some lax Luo Xiaomi didn''t find Jian Mo''s absence. He just lay back on the sofa and continued to nag: "Hey, there is a little uncle around for reference. How can I find someone in the future?" What Luo Xiaomi said, Jian Mo didn''t listen carefully. At this moment... Through the crowd, there was only one Gu Beichen in her world. However, it should have been the happiest time, inexplicably... I felt sad in my heart. Such sadness is like something slowly approaching, which makes her unable to grasp... But resists. The mobile phone that didn''t put down vibrated in her hand and suddenly surprised Jane mo. Luo Xiaomi saw Jian Mo trembling and looked at her suspiciously, "little aunt, what''s the matter?" Jane Mo shook her head, picked up her mobile phone and opened the text message It''s a message with a hidden number. The content is very simple: Happy Birthday! I''m looking forward to seeing you again! Maybe, soon Shi Shaoqin looked at the text message sent out, his narrow eyes narrowed slightly, and his good-looking corners of his mouth overflowed with fan smile! Chapter 669 Looking at the faint words, Jian Mo instantly thought of Shi Jue Chi. Once, she knew that he sent her a message with a hidden number I don''t know how he is now? Jane Mo put down her cell phone and her thoughts drifted away again... As if the noise of the reception was incompatible with her world. Shao Shi, Shi juechi... Do they have any connection? "Little aunt, what are you thinking?" Luo Xiaomi fanned his eyes and looked puzzled. Jane Mo restrained her mind, smiled and shook her head. "Pregnant women are sometimes easily distracted. It''s normal." "Really?" Luo Xiaomi said, "it''s amazing... Is it because Xiao Yan wants to communicate with you, so your thoughts wander into his world?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth, pulled at the corners of her mouth and nodded as if it were serious. Luo Xiaomi is a child after all. Although he doesn''t study hard and comes out of society early, he often talks with the fantasy boundary of a little girl. "Eat something..." Wen Run''s words fell, and a delicate soup bowl was put in front of Jian mo. Jian Mo and Luo Xiaomi looked at Su Junli sitting opposite at the same time, and listened to him say: "mom cooked it by herself. I have to make it up for the first little nephew." "Oh, three young people are here. I''ll go and play for a while." Luo Xiaomi said with a ghost spirit and blinked at Su Junli, "three young people, we are also relatives now. You must give me an exclusive for next year''s world tour concert." Looking at Luo Xiaomi''s opportunity to take credit, Su Junli and Jian Mo looked at each other and smiled. "Priority!" Su Junli said with a smile. Luo Xiaomi didn''t bother, "it''s a deal." Then she prayed in her heart that her little uncle wouldn''t skin her and got up and left. Jian Mo and Su Junli looked at each other and smiled. They both guessed Luo Xiaomi''s mind. Sure enough Gu Beichen was surrounded by a group of people, but his eyes had looked sharply here. Finally, he glanced at Luo Xiaomi and became familiar with it. "Aunt Luo likes to rub her back," Gu said Gu Nanyi listened, glanced lightly at Gu Beichen, and then smiled gloating, "you''re afraid that the world will not be chaotic, you have to let your little uncle cure... I can''t help you!" After that, Gu Nanyi looked at Luo Xiaomi sympathetically and walked past a person who came to say hello to her. "Are you still not your mother?" Luo Xiaomi wailed, "am I a gift for your shopping?" Gu Nanyi looked back and gave Luo Xiaomi a sympathetic look, "ask your father..." "..." Luo Xiaomi twitched at the corners of her mouth. What else could she say about a Keng baby''s mother? Jian Mo looked at Luo Xiaomi, stared at Gu Nanyi and smiled, "I like this little girl." "I went to see Xiao Jie today," Su Jun changed the topic, his voice was not heavy or light, and kept in the range that only Jian Mo could hear. "It looks a little depressed." "The previous four years were spent with you and him on my birthday..." Jane Mo sighed and looked down at her belly. "I hope this situation will pass soon." "Yes." Su Jun looked at him with a smile. From time to time, his eyes crossed his Gu Beichen fiercely, "Chen Shao must be able to solve it." Jane Mo smiled, "I believe him too!" Su Junli smiled and shook his head. "I know you''re sweet enough, so I don''t have to abuse my bachelor here." "Tut Tut, a well-known pianist, it''s too grounded to talk like this. It''s not suitable for people in your cloud!" Jane was joking. Su Junli shrugged slightly, "I learned from you..." The protagonist of today''s reception is Jian mo. Su Anyuan and Gu Beichen naturally become the object of "entanglement". While chatting, they are always mixed with interests Boring, but you have to deal with it. However, considering that Jian Mo is pregnant and it''s hard to get older in the month, Lu Hanzhen accompanies Su Anyuan to deal with the guests and asks Gu Beichen to leave with Jian Mo first. "Tired or not?" Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo and asked. "I''m fine..." Jane Mo shook her head. "It''s you. You''ve been dealing with people all night and haven''t seen you eat." "I''ll eat it later." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. "Yunze just called and said Zixiao had a reaction today... If you''re not tired, go and have a look first?" "Did Zixiao wake up?" Jane Mo''s eyes brightened. "I''m not tired. Go and see him first!" Despite the entanglement with Zixiao, he is still ah Chen''s nephew and the closest person in the Gu family Ah Chen will definitely want to go now. Besides, she is also worried about Zixiao. Xiao Jing drove the car and looked behind him in the rearview mirror. Without Gu Beichen''s explanation, the direction of the car is Huakang hospital. ¡­¡­ Zhang Nian covered the quilt for Chu Zixiao, looked at the sleeping man with a sad face and shriveled his mouth. "Since you love Jane Mo so much, you have the ability to wake up and grab it..." Zhang Nian snorted. "Lie down and let others think about it. You think you can occupy a place in others'' hearts? Why don''t you go to heaven?" The empty ward became calm after Zhang Nian''s words fell. Looking at Chu Zixiao''s emaciated face, Zhang Nian''s dissatisfied partial head, "cowardice!" Zhang Nian fell down with sad words in his anger. At the right time, Chu Zixiao''s fingers bent slightly... But only for a moment. Zhang Nian''s nose is a little sour. She thinks she''s funny Taking care of a patient who sleeps every day, she also takes care of her feelings... It''s still the kind of feeling that comes from her own thoughts! Zhang Nian sucked his nose, and then took a deep breath. After calming his mood a little, he carefully checked the instrument... As usual, he kept talking with Chu Zixiao. "In fact, Jane mordu is pregnant, and your brother is about to come to this world..." Zhang Nian suddenly said with some bad hearted pride. "What else can you think? If I were you, I''d better get up and bless you!" Zhang Nian sighed with great relief, looked at Chu Zixiao and continued: "you are a famous debater. When you wake up, I mean, I can''t say anything about you... Now, it''s time to take the opportunity to talk more!" She also entertained herself. After she said that proudly, she wanted to turn around and go to the nurse station to take notes At the moment of turning around, Chu Zixiao''s hand moved again... Zhang Nian suddenly stopped. She didn''t turn around immediately, just wondering if she was dazzled After all, this has just been checked and sent back to the ward. Li Shao said that the probability of recovery has increased, but there is no reason to wake up when you wake up? Turn slowly Zhang Nian looked at Chu Zixiao''s hand and saw his middle finger curl slightly Chapter 670 Zhang Nian''s eyes suddenly stared round, and his eyes were about to burst out She stared at Chu Zixiao''s hand for fear that she would be dazzled again. Because of tension and breath holding, Zhang Nian''s heart has been mentioned to his throat "Chu Zixiao, are you a man?" Zhang Nian''s voice trembled because he was nervous. "Do you have the ability to move again?" I don''t know if Chu Zixiao heard Zhang Nian''s words. Just when her voice fell, his fingers moved slightly and invisibly Zhang Nian''s eyes are full of fireworks exploded because of happiness. They are colorful. She hurriedly rang the call bell. Not satisfied, she turned and opened the door of the sick room. No matter it was late at night, she cried excitedly, "move, move... Really move..." When she shouted out, she saw that Li Yunze, Gu Beichen and Jian mo were just walking here. Zhang Nian hurriedly pointed to the ward and said excitedly and nervously, "it''s moving, Chu Zixiao is moving, really!" As soon as Li Yunze listened, he looked at Beichen, and then walked into the ward step by step. After listening to Zhang Nian''s shouting, Jane Mo was already a little worried. She subconsciously held her stomach and wanted to run "What''s the hurry?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "Yunze has gone in. You should check it first." "Oh, yes!" Jane Mo was stunned. "In a hurry, I forgot..." Gu Beichen sighed helplessly and helped Jian Mo to sit down in the chair in the corridor, "wait until Yunze comes out." Jane nodded, but her eyes looked straight at the direction of the ward door. Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo''s shoulder and knew she was worried Whether Mo''er still has the original feelings for Zixiao or not, Zixiao is always falling on a thorn in each other''s love. Waiting is long, especially waiting for the patient''s results. Li Yunze entered the ward for more than half an hour before he came out "Yunze, how about Zixiao?" Jane Mo has stood up. Li Yunze''s face was slightly relieved. "All the data are normal, if there is no accident..." he looked at Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, "... It is very possible to wake up in the near future!" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she immediately burst into a smile and looked at Gu Beichen Gu Beichen held her hand and pinched it gently. This news is worth being happy for them! "Don''t tell elder sister......" Gu Beichen said. Li Yunze nodded, "I understand!" People should have hope. In case of any situation, disappointment will be fierce for the first time Since it''s possible to wake up in the near future, I''ve been waiting for months anyway. It''s always better to wait for another period of time than to lose hope. "I''ll go in and see Zixiao..." Jane Mo said. Gu Beichen loosened her and nodded. After watching Jian Mo enter the ward, Gu Beichen and Li Yunze sit down on the original chair "No news from Chen Xuan yet?" Gu Beichen asked with his eyes slightly frozen. Li Yunze shook his head, "no more contact." Gu Beichen sighed, "is Jinxi okay?" "The surface is very good..." Li Yunze smiled astringently, "but how can it be good?" With no children, it''s impossible to risk your life to get pregnant in this life... Chen Xuan suddenly disappeared again. No one can understand the pain of suffering both physically and mentally without falling on themselves. Jane Mo went into the ward and just saw Zhang Nian looking at Chu Zixiao who didn''t know what to say. When I heard a voice, I turned my head and saw that it was Jian mo. I pulled the corners of my mouth awkwardly "Thank you!" Jane Mo smiled and thanked her sincerely. Zhang Nian frowned and looked at Jian Mo with some incomprehension, "thank me?" She pointed to herself. "Thank me for what?" Jane Mo walked forward with her waist in her hands, looked at Chu Zixiao, gently fanned her eyes and said, "I''m afraid Zixiao wouldn''t wake up so soon without you." While the voice fell, Jane Mo looked at Zhang Nian. There was no other emotion on her face, but a full smile. Zhang read his lower lip. "I just do what I should do... After all, I''m his special nurse." Jane Mo didn''t say much. She couldn''t intervene in some things. After watching Chu Zixiao, it was already early in the morning when Gu Beichen and Jian Mo went back. I didn''t feel it when I was in the hospital. When I got home, Jane Mo had a sour back... Sleepy and tired. After Gu Beichen changed Jian Mo''s shoes, he didn''t wait for her to say anything. He had already picked her up. Adding a big belly obviously has no effect on Gu Beichen''s strength... He who goes upstairs is still calm. "I''m so sleepy..." Jane Mo snorted and turned her face to Gu Beichen''s chest. Looking at the coquettish little woman, Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a smile, "I''ll give you a bath and go to bed." "Don''t..." Jane Mo smashed her mouth. "Play with fire, you have to take a cold bath... It''s cold!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. He loved her and was full of pity. Finally, in order not to play with fire, Jane Mo took a shower by herself She lay in bed with her head on Gu Beichen''s leg and enjoyed his hair blowing service. Xu was too tired. Before his hair was dried, he was hypnotized to sleep by the warm wind and gentle movements Gu Beichen didn''t dare to make any big moves after blowing to Jian Mo, but she made a "um" sound in her throat and moved to the pillow with her eyes closed. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s action, and the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly... For this little woman who would be considerate of him even subconsciously, it felt that it was not enough to think and love. Like giant monsters, the dark ink sky devours everything in the world at any time. Stormy waves swept people''s nerves, and a wave came... And swept Jian Mo into the sea. The choking sound of ''Gulu, Gulu'' seems to pull her into hell. All nerves are full of the smell of death "Help, help me..." Jian Mo''s lips trembled slightly, and her head shook, as if dragged by something, trying to break free, "ah Chen... Help me, help me..." Jane Mo''s breathing is getting heavier and heavier. The pressure of the sea water makes her uncomfortable Her hands had held her stomach, and the sea seemed to flatten her stomach... Even, she felt something running away from her body. "No, no..." Jian Mo''s voice began to tremble, "no... ah Chen, help me... Help me..." The voice of Jane suddenly tightened her hands, but her ears were cold "I won''t let this child appear in this world unless... Gu Beichen dies!" "Ah --" Jian Mo screamed, suddenly bounced and sat up, gasping, staring at her eyes, and her forehead was filled with cold. The door of the bathroom was suddenly opened, and Gu Beichen ran out wet, "Mo''er?" Chapter 671 Jian Mo gasped and looked at Gu Beichen Chiguoguo''s image was a little embarrassed, but she was not in the mood to enjoy Gu Beichen''s perfect figure comparable to the famous model. She just woke up suddenly and didn''t want to worry her. It''s okay, Jane shook her head and said However, when the words came to his mouth, he swallowed them back. She said it was okay. Isn''t that a lie? "Just had a nightmare..." Jian Mo said wrongfully, "I dreamed that you would push me away for Zixiao... Don''t me!" Gu Beichen immediately frowned on Jian Mo, fished off the cotton Nightgown on one side, wiped the water off his body, and then fished Jian Mo into his arms. "Fool..." he sighed helplessly, "I won''t push you away anymore, no matter what happens." Jian Mo''s lie made Gu Beichen feel guilty, but it wouldn''t worry him. She leaned against the skin of Gu Beichen''s chest and listened to his recent heartbeat, "I just dream..." "But I have thoughts every day and dreams every night..." Gu Beichen''s voice became more and more guilty. "Mo''er, when can the last shadow be eliminated for you?" "It''s normal for Gu Beize to look at her hair and think about it blindly during pregnancy." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, and his thin lips became a line. "Go and wash it," Jian Mo broke away from Gu Beichen''s arms, "I''ll catch a cold later..." Gu Beichen knew that Jian Mo didn''t want to continue this topic, so he didn''t nod again. When Jane Mo lay down and covered her with a quilt, Gu Beichen went to the bathroom again However, he washed it quickly. Before he had time to think about it, people came out. Sleeping in Gu Beichen''s arms, Jian Mo was obviously much more stable, and didn''t dream until dawn The sunshine outside was very good. It penetrated the curtains early and spilled into the bedroom. Early in the morning, the media were reporting on the reception of the Su family to recognize their daughter last night and gave the publicity of the "sunshine love fund" to the press release Naturally, the topic completely revolved around Jian Mo, and the whole discussion did not leave her on this day. This heat lasted for several days until... Was covered by another news item. The sunshine of late autumn is about to enter winter. It shines on Jane Mo warmly. She feels that the quiet years in this way is the greatest satisfaction of life. Gu Beichen is dealing with the documents. In order to make Jian Mo comfortable, he asked Xiao Jing to set up a leisure area in front of the office window. He can see her and her children from time to time in his busy life. He has nothing else to ask for. The mobile phone screen silently lights up, indicating that there is telephone access Jane Mo is prone to sleepiness recently. She falls asleep after reading. Gu Beichen is afraid to disturb her. Generally, when she is with her, her mobile phone will be muted. Picked it up and saw that it was Li Yunze. Gu Beichen picked it up. "Zixiao wakes up..." Li Yunze''s words are very brief. "You inform your eldest sister they, and I''ll check them first." "Good!" Gu Beichen answered and hung up the phone. He saw Jian Mo looking at him, "Zixiao woke up." Speaking, Gu Beichen pressed the inside line, "cancel the next meeting and see the next schedule..." "OK!" Susan''s capable voice came. Gu Beichen hangs up. Jian Mo has got up... Out of the office, and Xiao Jing also goes out of the special assistance office at the same time. Jane Mo always wondered whether Xiao Jing and Gu Beichen had a heart to heart electrical induction. Needless to say, they knew he was going out? Later, Xiao Jing explained... The times she met were really coincidence. Jane Mo is speechless directly. That''s a coincidence No way. At that time, Jian Mo was brainwashed by Luo Xiaomi rot culture. For Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing''s "double entry" and "inseparable", the CP Group in Los Angeles, which is secretly spread by the outside world, don''t be cute! Gu Beichen called Gu CI on the way. When he heard that Chu Zixiao woke up, they all put down their things and rushed to the hospital one after another. Gu CI is still estranged from Jian Mo, but he can only hang his face because of Gu Beichen''s relationship. What can he really do? "Beichen, do you mind if I have a few words with Jane?" Gu CI said in the gap waiting for inspection. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, didn''t say anything, and turned to the end of the corridor. Jane Mo looked calm. Gu CI talked about nothing more than Chu Zixiao. She knew. "Don''t worry, elder sister," Jian Mo opened his mouth before Gu CI spoke. "I''m in my position. You don''t have to worry about what will happen when Zixiao wakes up!" "If you can put it right, it doesn''t mean Zixiao can..." Gu CI knew that it was wrong for her to control her son''s consciousness and let Jane Mo bear it, but what could she do? In the end, one is his son and the other is his brother. It can''t be because of Jane mo. really? Jian Mo is a person with children and understands Gu Ci''s worries and concerns as a mother. "In fact, the best way to forget one person is to remember another person." Gu CI frowned and didn''t understand Jane Mo''s words. "Elder sister, if someone could squeeze me out of Zixiao''s heart..." Jane Mo smiled, "will you accept her regardless of her identity?" Gu Ci''s eyebrows frowned tighter. "What do you mean?" "It means that if you love Zixiao, don''t give up any chance to let him leave me..." Jian Mo smiled. "Of course, if you can''t accept another Zixiao, in order not to make him suffer again, I think you''d better give up and let Zixiao forget me!" "As long as Zixiao doesn''t pester you, what else can I force?" Gu Ci''s voice softened. Although she didn''t fully understand Jane Mo''s meaning, she probably heard it... Some people like Zixiao, but they may not be worthy of her identity. "Besides, you can marry Beichen. What else can I choose?" In the end, Gu CI ridiculed Xia Jianmo because of dissatisfaction. Jian Mo doesn''t matter. It''s a harmless thorn from her mother. Just pull it out... It won''t leave a wound. During the conversation, the door of the examination room opened, and Li Yunze took the lead in coming out. "Yunze, how''s Zixiao?" Gu CI asked hurriedly. Li Yunze said with a smile, "it''s all right. Take a few more days to recover your strength and nutrition, and you can be discharged from the hospital." At the right time, Chu Zixiao was pushed out of the examination room. His haggard face had no spirit, but he was awake. "Zixiao..." Gu CI hurried forward and looked up and down for a few times. "Is there anything else uncomfortable?" Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but his eyes fell on Jian Mo''s belly... But he looked calm without any emotion. The atmosphere was stiff and awkward for a moment. Gu CI looked at Jian Mo, and his anger, which had just dissipated after the conversation, burned up again. Zhang Nianzhe looked at Jian Mo with his lips, then looked down at Chu Zixiao, and his eyes were full of self mockery. "Slept for so long..." Chu Zixiao''s voice dried up and looked at Jian Mo''s vision. "You''re about to have another baby!" Chapter 672 Chu Zixiao''s words just fell. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes immediately gathered and then indifferent. Jian Mo didn''t pay attention to Chu Zixiao''s words, but said with a slight Alienation: "well, there are still two months..." "Take him to the ward first?" Li Yunze looked at Chu Zixiao and said, "I just woke up and can''t keep up with my physical function. Don''t talk for too long..." he glanced at Gu Beichen. "I''ll go to the office." Gu Beichen nodded and understood Li Yunze''s meaning. Zhang Nian looked at Jian Mo and looked at the nurse who pushed the hospital bed next to her. Without saying anything, she pushed the hospital bed to the ward Gu CI also looked at Jian Mo, sighed secretly, and left with the hospital bed. However, when passing by Jane Mo, she looked at her stomach and wondered... She didn''t hear the wrong words. Just now Zixiao said "again" is about to give birth? Again what do you mean? Gu CI frowned. Zixiao is a lawyer and always speaks without preciseness. In the thinking room, several people have entered the elevator Because Chu Zixiao just woke up, Gu CI didn''t care much about what he just said. However, some people didn''t care, others didn''t hear anything wrong, naturally... Others noticed. Sent Chu Zixiao back to the ward. Before they could speak, Chu tianqin and Tang Yu hurried to the ward. Tang Yu and Jian Mo nodded to say hello. Although he hasn''t seen Jian Mo in recent months, he has seen a lot of news... He can only boo and sigh between her and Gu Beichen. Xu is a professional instinct. He analyzes the gap between Xia a Xiao and Gu Beichen. In fact, both of them are excellent men... But ah Xiao didn''t see anything about Jian mo. This woman is too strong, but the stronger she is, the more she hopes to have a strong arm to rely on. Ah Xiao gave Jian Mo too many possibilities, but Gu Beichen, overbearing, let these possibilities become him... That''s all! Chu Zixiao just woke up. We didn''t say anything more except care... Fortunately, when people wake up, we can also relax. "I want to talk with Mo Mo alone..." Chu Zixiao''s voice came out gently. The atmosphere suddenly became stiff. Everyone looked at each other and felt some emotions in their hearts. At that time, Gu Beichen calmly shook Jian Mo''s hand and said, "we''re outside..." Then he looked at Gu Ci and took the lead in turning and walking outside the ward. Gu CI looked at Jian Mo, with a warning in his eyes and a helpless turn. One after another, everyone left the ward, except Jane mo. The atmosphere became strange and awkward. Jian Mo stood there with her waist supporting, looked at Chu Zixiao and sighed gently "Although asleep," Chu Zixiao said after all, "but I know a lot of things." Jane Mo didn''t speak, but just poked her lower lip. "Mo Mo..." Chu Zixiao shouted dryly. In his voice, there was obviously some astringent sadness, "really, I don''t want to wake up." Jane Mo''s lips tightened a little, but she still didn''t speak. "I think... No matter how you and Beichen are, as long as I don''t wake up, you always have my place in your heart?" Chu Zixiao tilted his head and looked out of the window. The afternoon sunshine penetrates the window and projects into the ward, and the warm breath is filled with the air "But will there really be a place?" Chu Zixiao mockingly hooked up the corner of his lips, "sympathy, or pity?" Jane Mo frowned. "Zixiao, you and I just missed the best..." she sighed, "but I left the most youth, didn''t I?" "Yes..." Chu Zixiao pulled back his eyes and looked at Jian Mo gently. "Your luck or misfortune may never be me." "Zixiao..." "What''s the use of saying more?" "My aunt laughed so hard," my aunt laughed Something pierced Jian Mo''s heart Zixiao was once beautiful and sharp. Now... Whether he sees through or reluctantly retreats, it is a blow to him. Little aunt The name came out of his mouth. What kind of pain is it? However, she can only show indifference and can''t give him any chance to daydream. "Let go, I don''t know if I can do it." Chu Zixiao looked out of the window again. He was afraid. Looking at Jian Mo, he couldn''t control his feelings. "But... I''ll try." Short words, let Jane Mo''s heart as if strangled by a rope, let her suffocate. "But what''s the use of trying when one has obsession in his heart?" Jian Mo''s faint words spilled over the lips and showed a hurtful breath. Chu Zixiao frowned and looked at Jian Mo, "what can you do for me?" He smiled, but smiled bitterly, "are you... Duplicity, will you be more comfortable?" Jian Mo''s face showed indifference under alienation. She leaned slightly and didn''t see Chu Zixiao. "It''s not easy for me and ah Chen to get here today. Zixiao, I''m a selfish person..." Jian Mo said coldly. "I don''t want to make your relationship with ah Chen rigid, but I don''t want to lose him." The self mockery was completely vented. Chu Zixiao''s mouth trembled, and his voice was ethereal in the distance, "I understand..." "You don''t understand!" Jane Mo secretly gritted her teeth and immediately refuted. No matter how sad she was, her face was extremely indifferent, "Zixiao, you don''t understand my pain when ah Chen tried to push me away because you drugged me. You don''t understand how afraid I am to lose this child..." Sentence by sentence, it pierced into Chu Zixiao''s heart like a needle. "Child..." Chu Zixiao''s voice suddenly trembled and was born two months later. Wasn''t it that Mo Mo was pregnant when he took the medicine? "Who knows?" Jane Mo sneered. "The doctor said there was no problem, and I hope so... But I couldn''t relax until he was born." Mingming''s words were only used to attack Chu Zixiao. However, because she said her subconscious concerns, Jian Mo''s nose began to sour and her eyes began to turn red When she was pregnant with the milk bag, Xu was too smooth. All her worries seemed to be giving Xiao Yan... She was really afraid that she would lose Xiao Yan. Everything between and ah Chen, heart to heart and deep love each other, and then to the pain... Xiao Yan witnessed it. She didn''t want to lose him, nor could she lose him! "Zixiao, a mother, has to worry that her child can''t come to this world healthily every day..." Jane Mo''s eyelashes trembled slightly, and the water mist has been dense in the fundus of her eyes. "You''ll never understand that anxiety." Chu Zixiao closed his eyes in pain, and the corners of his mouth trembled uncontrollably At first, why did he get obsessed? Is it... What he really wants to see when he sees Mo Mo so? Chapter 673 "Zixiao, I really hated you!" Jane Mo tilted her head. Her sight became blurred because of tears. She looked at Chu Zixiao and said bitterly, "but because of ah Chen... I can only forgive you!" The sound of "boom" exploded in Chu Zixiao''s brain. That feeling made him lose his ability to respond. Hate, because of Beichen! Forgive... Also because of Beichen! Is that what she means? Hehe, it''s over... All his remaining extravagant hopes should be over. A person has no feeling for you, that is, even hating and hating you feel like a waste of her time... Isn''t it? Jian Mo looked at the pain on Chu Zixiao''s face, and her heart kept cramping, but she could only endure it. He looked at Chu Zixiao deeply. Then Jian Mo turned and walked outside the ward Jian Mo opens the door of the sick room, and Gu Beichen turns around in time. Just when everyone looks over, he has brought Jian Mo into his arms, holding the back of her head with his big palm and pressing her face on his chest. In an instant, Jian Mo''s tears fell uncontrollably, but in a moment, Gu Beichen''s clothes were wet Zhang Nian looked at Jian Mo, first frowning, and then puzzled. All the people waiting, probably only Xiao Jing and Tang Yu understand, what''s wrong with Jane Mo at the moment She is such a kind woman. She just woke up in Zixiao and said heartless and even "vicious" words. Isn''t it a kind of pain for her? "Well..." Suddenly, Jane Mo snorted. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly frozen, and he felt Jian Mo''s body trembling slightly. He didn''t care to cover up her vulnerability. When he opened her, he saw some painful light support on her face No thinking, not even thinking! Everything is just instinct. Gu Beichen has already held Jian Mo up Xiao Jing''s face suddenly became frightened. Without waiting for Gu Beichen to say anything, he hurried to press the elevator. The change was so fast that the remaining people didn''t react for a while. After being stunned, the three people had disappeared in the elevator. The sound of hurried footsteps sounded in the hospital, always with a tense and dignified breath. Dr. Ge is still on duty. After receiving a call from the nurse, while wearing a doctor''s robe, he hurried to the examination room "What''s going on?" Li Yunze also followed and looked at Gu Beichen, whose face was dignified, and asked. Gu Beichen glanced at him. "It''s probably caused by emotional excitement." Li Yunze immediately frowned, "even if Jane Mo is excited about her conversation with Zixiao in the current month, there should be no such emergency response..." In this case, Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing''s faces were dignified and somewhat ugly. Although there was no problem with the recent fetal examination, at the beginning of pregnancy, Jane Mo was given silence. Before the child is born, it is not only Jian Mo who is nervous and worried, but also Gu Beichen Gu Beichen loves this child, but he is more afraid that Jane Mo will completely collapse because of this child! ¡­¡­ "Dong Dong!" When the knock came, Shi Shaoqin ignored it and said on the phone, "the Chen family still has some family background... Chen Xuan is the blood of the Kent family, and the Chen family will consider his wishes more or less." Mosen came in without making a sound, just waiting for Shi Shaoqin to continue talking on the phone. "Continue..." Shi Shaoqin ordered coldly, "if I don''t do it, naturally someone will do it for me." The other party is talking. Shi Shaoqin has been silent for a long time After several minutes, Shi Shaoqin hissed coldly and said, "what I want, even if I don''t do it myself? It will always be mine!" The words of Yin measurement fell, with a cold breath... I saw him hang his hand and press to cut off the phone. Mosen still didn''t speak, just waiting. Shi Shaoqin seemed to be precipitating the information just now. After a while, he turned and looked at Morson, "how''s juechi?" "Never wake up!" Morson said with a slight droop of his head. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly and then walked out After a long wait, Shi juechi was able to wake up, indicating that the heart function has gradually begun to return to normal operation... Unintentionally, this is great good news for both the Smiths and the people in Mo palace. When Shi Shaoqin pushed the door in, Shi juechi closed his eyes His eyes suddenly darkened, and his voice asked coldly, "didn''t you say you woke up?" The medical staff in the room were shocked one by one. They were so surprised by the cold smell from Shi Shaoqin that they forgot to answer. "Just woke up, he''s still very weak..." Smith said calmly. "He''s asleep now." Shi Shaoqin''s sight "rubbed" on Smith. That eye, straight through Smith''s eyes, penetrated his heart. After watching for a few seconds, Shi Shaoqin calmly withdrew his sight and looked at Shi juechi, who was still pale and almost bloodless. His heart, which had been holding, slowed down a little. Compared with the slightly soothing atmosphere in the room because of Shi Shaoqin''s astringent breath... The Chen family is obviously gloomy. Grandpa Chen sat on the sofa with no lighted cigar in his hand. Chen Zhaobai copied his pockets with both hands, crossed his legs with a sense of evil, and leaned lazily against a cabinet. His expression was invisible. What was he thinking at the moment? "Grandpa, you come to me..." Chen Zhaobai said, "just let me see what you think?" Grandpa Chen glanced at the future successor of the Chen family and asked coldly, "has Chen Xuan gone?" "Just left..." Chen Zhaobai said faintly, "I''m surprised that Li Jinxi can spend so long here." Grandpa Chen snorted coldly, "if he really has a heart for the Chen family, he won''t open any laoshizi entertainment company in Los Angeles." Chen Zhaobai smiled darkly. There was no cold trace of temperature in that smile. "If he had a heart for the Chen family, there would be only one ending..." his eyes sank and slowly spit out a word, "die!" Grandpa Chen was stunned, but he didn''t respond. Chen Zhaobai is the last grandson of the Chen family... It''s not because he is a legitimate grandson, but because he is cruel. "Tell me, what do you think?" Grandpa Chen took a lighter and lit a cigar. Chen Zhaobai sneered, "it depends. Grandpa is going to lean over there." "Tell me..." Chen Zhaobai''s eyes are bright and deep, "a dragon owl, a Shi Shaoqin... Mixed with Gu Beichen in the middle, Grandpa, which do you want to rely on?" "Ink palace, of course!" Grandpa Chen said without thinking, "we eat by goods!" "Grandpa has a plan in mind..." Chen Zhaobai said leisurely, "isn''t it?" "Indeed!" Grandpa Chen liked the grandson more and more. "As I told you, there is a Gu Beichen in the middle." He smiled at the corners of his mouth, and his eyes were more resourceful, "and Gu Beichen''s weakness is Jianmo..." After a pause, Grandpa Chen''s eyes were filled with a far-reaching smile. "Maybe we can separate from Jian Mo and Gu Beichen first, and then do a detailed investigation together..." he smoked a cigar. "It seems that... No one cares about the years when Jian Mo left Gu Beichen!" Chapter 674 Jian Mo has only been in the examination room for half an hour, and Gu Beichen has lost his calm in the past In other words, Xiao Jing and Li Yunze are around him, and he doesn''t need to suppress his emotions. I saw him taking his pockets with both hands, pacing back and forth near the examination room, slightly hanging his head, and the thick eyelashes gathered away all the emotions overflowing from his eyes at the moment Li Yunze leaned against the wall with his arms around his chest and looked back and forth at Gu Beichen pacing... After looking at it for a while, he turned his head to Xiao Jing. "Has he been like this lately?" Li Yunze''s voice was not loud, but he was very heavy first in the quiet corridor. Xiao Jing looked at Li Yunze and looked at Bei Chen before nodding It''s not Jane who is nervous, but even less Chen. He needs to consider not only the children, but also Jane Mo! If anything happens to the child, Jane will collapse... And the final result is that Chen Shao will be crazy. Li Yunze''s face is more dignified. The clearer Beichen''s weakness is, the better he can grasp it. Then... The more opportunities for Shi Shaoqin. However, there is no way to cover up this weakness. "Boss long really doesn''t want to intervene?" Li Yunze asked reluctantly. Xiao Jing shrugged. "Brother Xiao is in a mess now..." after a pause, he looked again and paced to Gu Beichen in the opposite direction. "Besides, if it involves the dragon family, I really can''t manage it." Li Yunze is also very clear. Although boss long hasn''t officially returned to the dragon''s house yet, it''s also a matter of time When the identity is translucent, he is involved with the Mo palace and trapped in the whole island and the global and crisis of the Dragon empire. He is not a responsible person and will do it. What''s more... As boss long said, it''s all up to Beichen to solve or not, and no one can help. Even if he does it, it''s only temporary... The hidden bomb will explode at any time. Just when the atmosphere became more and more dignified, the door of the examination room opened Xiao Jing and Li Yunze haven''t responded yet. They see Gu Beichen has arrived. "It''s just that the mood is too volatile," Dr. Ge said with a smile. "Adults and children are fine." Gu Beichen listened and breathed a sigh of relief, "thank you!" Dr. Ge is used to Gu Beichen becoming very grounded because of Jian mo She just smiled and nodded. "We should have more rest these days. The temperature difference between morning and evening is big. Don''t let her get sick." Gu Beichen nodded slightly, and his thin lips moved back and forth. He saw the nurse holding Jian Mo out... It was too late to say when he reached his mouth. He had already crossed Dr. Ge and helped Jian mo. Dr. Ge looked back, smiled, said hello to Li Yunze and left "Don''t worry too much about Zixiao," said Li Yunze, looking at Jian mo. "when people wake up, they should say what they should say and do what they should do... No one can be responsible for other people''s lives." A touch of astringent ran across the corner of Jane Mo''s mouth. She had just had a stomachache, and her frightened soul was almost scattered. "When you reason with others, you can speak very well." Li Yunze sighed, "don''t be your turn. You can''t figure it out." "I''m just..." Jian Mo was about to stop talking, looked at Gu Beichen and turned the conversation, "I understand." "You go back first!" Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen, "what''s wrong? I''ll talk about it later." Gu Beichen didn''t make a detour either. He motioned with Li Yunze''s line of sight. Then he attached himself and held Jian Mo horizontally Jane Mo has no affectation. She may have been too worried just now and she doesn''t have much strength at the moment. Burying her face in Gu Beichen''s chest, she said stuffy, "don''t be angry..." "I''m not angry!" Gu Beichen''s voice was a little hard. Jian Mo secretly glanced at Gu Beichen''s tight chin and said angrily: "lie..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and sighed, "you don''t have to worry about the relationship between my eldest sister and Zixiao... It''s not as bad as you think." After entering the elevator, Gu Beichen said in a strained voice: "people should be persistent, and it''s not what you can do with a word or two... Zixiao is a smart man. He will understand sooner or later." Jane murmured her lips, "you are good for me, but I also want to be good for you!" Gu Beichen looked down at the stuffy Jian Mo and sighed. That''s why... He couldn''t blame her. With a Ding, the elevator arrived. Xiao Jing breathed out secretly... Chen Shao and Jian Mo really treated him as transparent. Is it really good to be angry with a dog? ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin sat on the big back sofa of European style, his slender legs overlapping at will, and looked at it with a folder in his hand. "How much has the share been paid?" Shi Shaoqin spoke in a quiet voice. "More than half." Morrison replied. Shi Shaoqin raised his hand. Mosen almost instinctively took out his pen and put it in his hand The fluent and beautiful English font quickly appeared on the paper. When the nib was a little on the paper, Shi Shaoqin''s eyes suddenly gathered... And then looked up. Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin with weak breath and eyes open. He didn''t blink. There was joy in the bottom of his eyes "Shaoqin, I can still see you..." Shi juechi''s voice was very hoarse and dry after the operation, "... It''s good!" Shi Shaoqin didn''t move. Even, there was no expression on his beautiful face, just... A pair of eyes, looking at Shi Jue Chi, deeper and deeper. Shi Jue Chi pulled a dry smile from the corners of his mouth, but it was from his heart. Shi Shaoqin closed the folder, gave the pen to Mosen and got up When he came to Shi juechi, he stopped, "it''s good for me that you can wake up!" "I just woke up..." Shi juechi said discontentedly. "Next, you''ll get better." Shi Shaoqin was like a Satan who was in control of his fate. His words were gloomy and domineering. Shi juechi didn''t speak, sighed secretly... He didn''t speak. The two of them swallowed the goods and said, "I couldn''t help but swallow them." "Yes!" Shi Shaoqin answered indifferently. Mosen looked at the eye stone, then turned and left the bedroom. When he got outside, he opened the folder and looked at the lines written by Shi Shaoqin in English At the end, Morson looked back at the bedroom door closed by himself. His face was unspeakably complex. For a moment, it changed several kinds. Turning around, Mosen went outside the castle and dialed the phone "Qin Shao thinks that the crackdown on the Chen family is not enough..." Mosen said in a cold voice, "release the news, the Chen family will give 10% more goods!" Standing on the steps at the gate of the ancient castle, looking at the sea, there was only the light of the tail of the sunset... After Mohsen ordered, he hung up the phone. Maybe we should report the discovery of Los Angeles to qinshao! Chapter 675 For ordinary people, the time every day is like the things they always do and the places they go. And under such a conventional appearance, in the dark world, it has long been bloody As the fifth organization to get the share of Mo palace, the Chen family finally got 10% more goods, which made everyone red eyed. Fighting is always inseparable from blood. In this era of abundant guns and ammunition, people have to sleep and get up... It seems to have become a habit for people who lick blood and earn black money. With a bang, there was a heavy noise of slapping the table in the Chen family''s conference hall! "If you want to destroy my Chen family, you have to see if you have this ability..." Grandpa Chen roared angrily, and his eyes flashed across the lower hall leaders. "The ink palace dares to give me more goods for the Chen family. Can''t... I can''t eat anymore?" Hall leaders everywhere looked at each other one by one. This year''s harvest of golden three horn poppy was in arrears, and they gave an extra 10% of the goods. It was a business of more than 100 million "Don''t worry, old man!" A sub hall leader has jumped up, "as long as the ink palace gives it, we dare to eat!" When someone opens his mouth, naturally, someone will shout A famous person once said... If capital has 50% profit, it will take risks. If it has 100% profit, it will dare to trample on all the laws on earth! If it has 300% profit, it will dare to commit any crime... Even risk being hanged. In the case of shortage of goods and an extra 10%... That''s 400% higher than the profit in previous years. Under such profit, people have long forgotten life and death and dare to take risks! Chen Zhaobai didn''t speak from beginning to end, but with a faint smile and eyes, he looked as indifferent as water and crossed the excited sub hall leaders one by one. Drooping his eyes, Chen Zhaobai''s fundus crossed the gloom... But he soon disappeared. After grandpa Chen reached a consensus with each sub hall leader, the hall leaders left one after another to arrange the defense and receiving of goods. In such a large conference hall, only grandpa Chen and Chen Zhaobai were left. An accident just got too excited and turned a little red. An indifferent one was incompatible with everything here. "Zhaobai!" Grandpa Chen shouted. Chen Zhaobai didn''t get up, but looked up Grandpa Chen turned and looked at him at the right time, "let the people of Cha Jianmo speed up... Shi Shaoqin seems to force Gu Beichen to find him in person this time!" "Good!" Chen Zhaobai responded leisurely and didn''t have much emotion. However, when Grandpa Chen turned and looked outside again, a cold light flashed across his eyes... It seems that hatred and resentment are fleeting, which is so fast that people can''t think about it at all. ¡­¡­ Chen Xuan walked out of the machine with sunglasses, medium and long coffee windbreaker and Trolley Case Although he was in a hurry to leave this time, he came back from Los Angeles after turning several places. Some people in the media knew that he had left, but few came back. He went to the parking lot to pick up the car. When the car turned out of the parking lot, Chen Xuan dialed the phone to go out "Do you know how to appear?" Gu Beichen spoke faintly. Chen Xuan gritted his teeth. "Where is it?" "Company!" Gu Beichen''s sight became deep. Chen Xuan''s teeth tightened. "Do you know what I want to do most now?" He asked, but Gu Beichen didn''t need to answer, "I just want to beat you up!" "Can you fight?" Gu Beichen slightly picked the tail of his eyebrow, and there was a mockery of provocation in the depths of his ink pupil. Chen xuanleng hissed, "Gu Beichen, I''m really hurt by you!" The words fell. He didn''t wait for Gu Beichen to speak. He was angry and hung up the phone, and then dialed Li Jinxi''s. Li Jinxi sat on the lazy sofa basking in the morning sun. She didn''t move when her mobile phone rang. After a while, a servant came and woke her up in a daze. Once I took the mobile phone, I didn''t expect anything, even as if I didn''t have a soul. However, when seeing the displayed name, Li Jinxi''s eyelashes trembled uncontrollably. The bell suddenly stopped. Li Jinxi looked at the missed call displayed above and lost his mind again The phone didn''t ring again for two seconds. When Li Jinxi saw the name of the caller ID again, he put a self mocking smile on the corner of his mouth... Then he cut off the phone. Turn it off and calmly put the mobile phone aside... All the actions seem to have no emotion. "Except grandpa and Yunze, anyone who calls says I''m not here!" Li Jinxi got up, "someone looked for me and said I didn''t come back here." The servant answered and looked at Li Jinxi upstairs. His face was a little heavy Take a look at the mobile phone that Bai put aside. The servant''s first reaction was that it should be Chen Xuan, but... Is it or can''t she solve it as a servant. When Chen Xuan called again, it was already turned off. When the car heard the underground parking lot of the apartment, Chen Xuan went straight to his love nest with Li Jinxi... Although he knew that 100% of the people were not there! However, he still had extravagant hopes When I opened the door, the cold breath was filled with empty solitude. Chen Xuan closed his eyes and didn''t go in. He closed the door and went to the parking lot. Chen Xuan is worried about whether there will be any news tomorrow. He just wants to see Li Jinxi quickly because of the negative news of Huayu president racing in the downtown area. ¡­¡­ "What''s the matter?" Jian Mo made coffee and came in. He saw Gu Beichen lying back in his seat, thinking, "what do you think?" Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at Jian Mo approaching himself step by step. His eyes became soft, "if I''m thinking of you, do you believe it?" "Don''t believe it!" Jane Mo shook her head and smiled. Familiar conversations always bring back a lot of memories Gu Beichen fished Jian Mo and asked her to sit on his leg. His big palm gently touched her stomach "Move!" "I''m excited to see you interact with Xiao Mo recently," she said Gu Beichen''s eyes became soft. "Have you ever thought about what path Xiao Yan would like to take in the future?" "Never thought..." Jian Mo leaned his head on Gu Beichen''s shoulder. "When Xiao Jie used to think that he would study architectural design with me... But Xiao Yan didn''t." "Whatever he wants..." Gu Beichen''s big palm is close to Jian Mo''s stomach. Xiao Yan kicks it from time to time. His thin lips will overflow with a happy smile, "one is responsible for responsibility, the other is responsible for freedom!" "Good!" Jane foam answered sweetly. Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo''s face for a while. Just when he was about to get emotional, he said without moving: "go to bed and take you out later." "Well, good!" Jane answered and went to the lounge in the office. In due time, Gu Beichen sent a text message to Xiao Jing... Erase the events of Xiao Jie''s four years! Chapter 676 Xiao Jing looked at the message and was stunned at first. Then he reacted: I''ll do it now! After replying, Xiao Jing took his windbreaker and went out "Xiao Jing, where are you going?" Susan came out of the secretary room. "I have a document for you..." "Wait until I come back." Xiao Jing''s footsteps kept interrupting Susan''s words. People had pressed the down button of the elevator. Susan tilted her mouth and looked at Xiao Jing after he entered the elevator. Then she looked back at the document. "I''m in a hurry here, too, okay?" After that, she glanced at Gu Beichen''s office and decided to let him sign. Susan knocked on the door quietly for fear of startling Jane mo When he opened the door and saw that Jian Mo was not on the couch, he breathed out and walked forward skillfully, "Chen Shao, Xiao Jing went out, but this document needs to be signed." Gu Beichen took it over and frowned after roughly looking at it. "The integration of JK has not been done yet?" "There was a little accident. It should be OK this week!" Gu Beichen looked slightly cold. After taking the signature pen and signing, youyou said, "let the person in charge of the legal department come to me." Susan grinned quietly, "OK!" Then she took the signed document and turned away from the office. Gu Beichen continues to deal with the emperor''s affairs. Jane Mo is in the lounge, but she doesn''t sleep well. She wakes up with a slight movement... And the action of waking up is always to protect her stomach. Jane Mo frowned. She didn''t know if it was because she was under too much pressure. Subconsciously, she could always think of Xiaoyan''s bad things "Xiao Yan, you will come to this world," Jian Mo said softly, lying on the bed. "You will enjoy everything life gives with your mother, father and brother, right?" No one answered her, and even Xiao Yan seemed not sure whether he could see the world, without giving her any response. Jane Mo sighed and couldn''t sleep. She casually took the book aside and looked at it casually ¡­¡­ When Chen Xuan arrived at Li''s villa, he was told that Li Jinxi was not there. "Did you go out or didn''t you come back after leaving the hospital?" Chen Xuan asked. He simply sat down on the sofa. At the right time, his vision fell on Li Jinxi''s mobile phone. "Yes..." the servant hesitated. "Yes, I''m out!" "How many days has she been discharged?" Chen xuanleng hissed, "as a medical family, will she walk around in such cold weather?" The servant twitched at the corners of his mouth and hurriedly said, "well... I''ll make tea!" Then she turned and ran to the kitchen. Chen Xuan''s eyes sank slightly. He turned back and looked upstairs. He didn''t go up and waited at the bottom What we should face is still to face. No matter whether the mistake of that year is related to him or not, but this time we left for no reason, and there is no news at all, it is his fault! Hearing the servant''s report, Li Yunze hurried back When I opened the door, I saw Chen Xuan sitting there watching TV. He was angry. "The Li family doesn''t welcome you!" Li Yunze sneered, "Xuan Shao, you''d better go!" "It''s your business whether you like it or not. I want to see my wife. It''s my business." Chen Xuan opened his mouth faintly and looked up at Li Yunze. "See, I''ll go naturally." Li Yunze strode forward and without a word pulled Chen Xuan''s collar with a punch Chen Xuan didn''t hide, so he was forced by Li Yunze. The teeth broke the skin of the mouth, and a rusty smell spread in the mouth. Chen Xuan rubbed indifferently, and saw Li Yunze swing another punch... He dodged easily and sneered. "I''m willing to take that punch. Li Yunze, don''t push an inch!" Chen xuanleng snorted and got up. Yu Guang caught a glimpse of the figure upstairs, "Jinxi!" Li Yunze stopped the momentum and looked upstairs. He saw Li Jinxi holding the stair guardrail with one hand and looking at their direction with empty eyes. Li Yunze looked painfully at Li Jinxi, who had always been free and easy. A child and a past almost tortured her like a person. Chen Xuan ran upstairs and looked at the haggard and soulless Li Jinxi and clenched his hand. "Jinxi, I have something to say to you!" "Yunze," Li Jinxi didn''t even look at Chen Xuan. He shouted and went downstairs, "tell him when Dad comes back." Li Yunze''s sideburns moved, nodded, and then took his cell phone to Li Jinxi. "If you have anything, call me and I''ll pick you up." "If I don''t want to, he can''t beat me?" Li Jinxi smiled. Li Yunze looked at Chen Xuan, who was in a confused state, and took back his sight with a cold hum, "what I just told you, did you write it down?" Li Jinxi nodded When Li Yunze heard that Chen Xuan was in the villa, his first reaction was to beat him to death, and his second reaction was to call Li Jinxi. Not much, just a few words "Jin Xi, if you still love him, don''t torture yourself." Li Yunze said on the phone, "elder brother and mother love you so much. If they see you doing this for them, how sad do they have to know? Talk to Chen Xuan and give him a chance and give yourself a chance... If you really can''t let go of the past, you''re dead!" Li Yunze doesn''t hate the Chen family, but he loves Li Jinxi, who has been with her from her mother''s stomach Chen Xuan walked down silently. During the conversation between Li Yunze and Li Jinxi, he guessed about it. He took his shawl and put it on Li Jinxi and said, "it''s a little cold outside. I''ll drive to the front..." Li Jinxi didn''t speak. Chen Xuan''s heart was like a big stone, which made him unable to breathe. He knew... Most of the reason why Jinxi left with him was not to talk to him, but not to worry about Li Yunze and them. But anyway, it''s his chance! ¡­¡­ Night, when winter is coming, always comes earlier. After eating, Jane Mo holds her mobile phone and chats with Jane Jie via SMS Although he is still dying of being surrounded by milk, the warm feeling is different from that in Britain. It is warm. "Ah Chen," Jane Mo suddenly became interested, "let me tell you about the embarrassment of the milk bag when you were a child?" Gu Beichen spoiled and smiled, "OK!" "I''ll tell you..." When Jane morcai spoke, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone rang. "Wait!" Gu Beichen saw that the phone call was Xiao Jing. After talking to Jian Mo, he got up and went to the French window, "what''s the matter?" "I''ve covered up everything about young master Jie..." Xiao Jing said, "if you know the situation, you''ve given me a cover fee or controlled the relevant people." "Yes." Gu Beichen responded indifferently. It''s no surprise that Xiao Jing will get things done in only half a day. Because the adoptive father of the Dragon owl''s sphere of influence is in Britain. Meanwhile, Mosen received a call from the person in charge of Los Angeles "Brother Sen, the undertaker reported... Chu Zixiao woke up and saw that Jian Mo was pregnant. He used the word ''you''. I don''t know if it was a slip of the tongue just woke up." The recognition voice had some doubts, "but... If you contact Spencer, it can really be worth studying!" Chapter 677 Mosen was slightly silent and just asked, "is it possible..." he hesitated and then asked, "is it possible that Chu Zixiao just woke up, so he made a slip of the tongue?" "But he''s a lawyer!" The man calmly opened his mouth, "as a professional instinct, especially a person like Chu Zixiao, will such a slip of the tongue be somewhat unlikely?" Morson was silent again. The other party didn''t say it was unreasonable According to some unexplained things in medicine, vegetative people don''t completely lose consciousness. Many times, they just don''t want to wake up... But they still know what''s happening around them and what Bi people have said to him. If so... It''s not difficult to calculate some clues. Most importantly, now that the supply of goods in Los Angeles is basically cut off, the bid up prices have made many people moved. Knowing Qin Shao''s intention, he naturally wants to start from Gu Beichen! Unfortunately, Gu Beichen''s influence in Los Angeles should not be underestimated. Whether it''s the dark forces of the Dragon owl or the military and political forces of Lin Naner... Everything is daunting. Shen Hao suddenly went to that school. It''s really thought-provoking. "Check it!" Morson gave orders. "Yes!" "Wait..." Mosen said hurriedly after the other party answered, "wait first?" "Brother Sen?" The person in charge of Los Angeles was a little confused and asked, "what''s the matter?" Mosen didn''t answer immediately. He just frowned and thought for a while before saying, "if there is someone we don''t know... Gu Beichen doesn''t want him to be announced, it''s impossible that he hasn''t done anything. If you go to check it so rashly, I''m afraid you''ll have surprised the snake when you can''t find anything." "Then..." "I''ll report it to Qin Shao. What should I do? Wait for my call!" "Good!" Morson waited for the answer before hanging up. Look at the sea swallowed up by the night. Although winter is coming, the Mo palace is not in winter. Mosen astringed his eyes and walked to Shi Shaoqin''s study with big steps The cold light in the castle can not be seen through, and the dark light in the castle can not be seen through. "Dong Dong!" After Mosen knocked on the door, he opened the door of the study... It was empty and Shi Shaoqin was not there. He went to the bedroom again, and there was no one! After a little meditation, Mosen turned and walked downstairs to Shi juechi''s bedroom The voice of speaking came faintly through the open door. "How do I know if you will advance an inch?" Shi Shaoqin''s cold voice was like a ghost. Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin. After a few seconds, he said, "the last one!" "Even if I don''t mess with Jane and her baby, do you think it will end?" Shi Shaoqin sneered coldly. Shi Jue Chi said calmly, "Shaoqin, let''s take a step back... Whether it will end or not, I just hope you promise me this!" He took a tough attitude and made it clear that he would not give in again. He has no ability to let Shaoqin out of the past. Maybe, as he said, only can he pay tribute to all his pain. He hoped Shaoqin could come out, but he could not selfishly make him suffer alone. Since you can''t let go, you might as well let Shaoqin do it However, since he wants a Gu Beichen to pay a memorial, he should always try his best to make Gu Beichen have no worries. A Jian Mo, and the child in her belly... As long as Shaoqin holds it in his hand, Gu Beichen will always bind his hands and feet. "What if she comes to me herself?" Shi Shaoqin is cold and light. Shi Jue Chi was still indifferent, "don''t worry about Beichen threatening her... How could she come to you?" The rhetorical question is ironic... But it is also a fact. "Shaoqin, you know what I mean..." Shi juechi was a little tired. "I don''t care what happened between you and Gu Beichen, but you can''t threaten Gu Beichen with Jian Mo and her baby, and you can''t use Gu Beichen to let Jian Mo find you!" Shi Shaoqin suddenly clenched his hand! "If, even this, you can''t promise..." Shi juechi deviated from his sight, and the corners of his mouth were completely mocking, but he didn''t know whether he was mocking himself or Shi Shaoqin. "Why do you save me and kill me again?" "Good!" Shi Shaoqin gnashed his teeth and said a word. Chi Shaoshi was surprised that he didn''t agree! "Declare in advance..." Shi Shaoqin squeezed every word out of his teeth. "I promise your terms! But if... Jane Mo came to me not within your conditions, it''s no wonder that I!" Then he didn''t stop. He just looked at Shi juechi fiercely, turned and walked out "Shaoqin!" Shi juechi always felt that he had missed something and shouted quickly. Shi Shaoqin stopped, "don''t talk to me about terms!" His narrow eyes narrowed gently, "I''m afraid... I won''t promise you anything!" Shi juechi didn''t speak, but he was a little uneasy But he didn''t think much... He just thought he was worried too much, so he always felt something was wrong. "Qin Shao!" When Mosen saw Shi Shaoqin coming out, he saluted. Shi Shaoqin glanced at him lightly and walked upstairs without stopping. "Qin Shao, I found something in Los Angeles..." Morson and Shi Shaoqin opened their mouth respectfully after entering the study. Shi Shaoqin looked at him and didn''t speak. After Mo Sen said Chu Zixiao''s words and the problems found by the person in charge of Los Angeles, he asked: "Qin Shao, do you think... Could it be..." "Gu Beichen and Jian Mo already have a child?" Shi Shaoqin answered. Morson shook his head. "I''m afraid we need to confirm..." paused. "Do you want someone to go to Spencer to investigate?" "If there really exists such a child..." Shi Shaoqin sneered, "do you think Chen will not be prepared if he doesn''t make it public?" Morson forbidden, swallowed secretly, and didn''t dare to answer. Shi Shaoqin murmured slightly, "go and check..." Morson raised his eyes and didn''t react. "If Jian Mo really had Gu Beichen''s child," Shi Shaoqin sat down on the sofa, "it could be the child he conceived before leaving Chen in those years." Morson thought and nodded. "It seems that we should start from the place where Jane Mo settled in those years." "What happened to the Chen family?" Shi Shaoqin asked. "The news came that when they were too busy, the Chen family sent someone to London!" "It seems that the Chen family has gone to check it!" said Morson, who suddenly widened his eyes Chapter 678 In the dormitory of the University of London School District, a middle-aged man with blond hair and blue eyes is going out with fishing tools on his back Suddenly, he was stopped. "Hello, does Jane still live here?" The middle-aged man shook his head. "I''ve been away for more than half a year. Who are you?" "I''m her friend!" The man looked regretful, "I came here for a small stay at Christmas two years ago, and I didn''t hear that she was leaving..." The middle-aged man shrugged. "Gone, left with Professor Adrian." "What a pity..." the man sighed softly. "I thought I could see her when I passed here this time." The middle-aged man also has regrets on his face, as if he had something to do with him at the moment. "By the way," the man suddenly remembered, "Jane''s child, have you left with her?" "Child..." when the middle-aged man mentioned the child, his face was obviously heavy. "Are you kidding Jemi?" The man nodded hurriedly. The middle-aged man''s face was more heavy, "then you must have not come here to find her for more than two years..." "Yes, yes, yes!" The man nodded hurriedly again. "Hey..." the middle-aged man sighed deeply. "It''s pathetic to say that little Jemi is such a beautiful child, but God didn''t bless him." "What do you mean?" The middle-aged man sighed again, "little Jemi has gone up the ladder of heaven and become a little angel!" "..." the man twitched at the corners of his mouth, "dead?" The middle-aged man was obviously dissatisfied with his words, "he has become a little angel!" "...." the man opened his mouth slightly and saw the middle-aged man cross him and leave dissatisfied. Had children, but... Died? The man quickly took out his mobile phone and dialed Chen Zhaobai. "Brother Bai, Jian Mo did have a child. I inquired about it and many people have seen it... However, it has just been confirmed that the child has long died!" Chen Zhaobai answered and looked at Grandpa Chen. "Grandpa seems to want to make an article with that child. He can''t do it." "What?" Grandpa Chen doesn''t understand. "Because I''m dead!" Chen Zhaobai said in a cold voice. "..." Grandpa Chen was stunned and threw away the teacup in his hand, "I thought there was a good way out, but it was empty joy!" In Chen Zhaobai''s slightly drooping eyes, a touch of gloomy eyes passed in a flash. "If the Mo palace doesn''t come out to speak again..." Chen Zhaobai said slowly, "the Chen family is afraid it can''t carry it." Grandpa Chen''s face was heavy, "let''s check again..." he gritted his teeth, "dead, I don''t believe it!" He sneered, "I want to know all the news of Jane Morse in those years, including... After she returned to Los Angeles!" Chen Zhaobai paused before answering. ¡­¡­ When Shen Chu came to the Banshan villa, he saw Gu Beichen massaging Jian Mo''s lower legs. Slightly stunned, she restrained her faint emotion, changed her shoes and entered the villa "My leg is cramped." Jane Mo said helplessly. Shen Chu didn''t speak. He just looked at Beichen and took out a pile of information from his bag. "Everything is ready, but there is a design of an open-air concert platform to be added to the Zhengfu side." Jane Mo took it, moved her body slightly, looked at Gu Beichen and said, "it''s much better. Go and do your work first!" Gu Beichen nodded with a smile, "remember to eat the walnuts later." "Yes!" Jian Mo answered and looked at Gu Beichen. After he went upstairs, he motioned Shen Chu to sit down. "Fruit tea, please help yourself!" Shen Chu was not polite either. He poured himself fruit tea on the small stove and drank it warmly. "This is something they asked for and the details discussed with group B. if there is no problem, the design will be changed tomorrow." Jian Mo looked at it carefully, put forward several opinions with Shen Chu, and then discussed and determined it together. It has been an hour. It was dark outside. Originally, Shen Chu didn''t have to come to Jian Mo at night. However, things were suddenly urgent and there was no way. "OK, just modify according to this plan..." Jian Mo finally finalized the direction and was surprised to find that she and Shen Chu had the same ideas in this regard. Shen Chu packed up his things and ignored Jane Mo and kept looking at her, "don''t look at me with such ambiguous eyes. I''m not interested in women!" "..." Jane Mo rolled her eyes. "There is a husband who is crazy and loyal to dogs. Do I need to like women?" "Then you look at me like this," Shen Chu glanced at Jian Mo, "do you worship me?" Jane mo ''ho'' said, "you''re really narcissistic." Shen Chu raised his eyebrows with a confident smile on his face. Once people get out of a desperate situation, what they put in front of them will be light "Shen Chu," Jian Mo shouted from his heart, "you will prove your talent to everyone!" "What do you say?" Shen Chu''s proud face. Jane Mo skimmed her mouth, "give you the pole, and you start to climb along..." "Must......" Shen chuzhe smiled. At first glance, it was a smile from the bottom of his heart. "All right, I''ll go, and you''ll have a rest as soon as possible! Don''t have to go back and wear my little shoes!" Jane Mo smiled and wanted to get up to send Shen Chu, but she stopped her. "Jian Mo," Shen Chu raised his eyebrow, "love and career. Now I just want career... Confident women will be favored by the God of love." She got up, "give my words to Li Xiaoyue!" After taking a deep look at Jian Mo, Shen Chu turned and left with a smile The sound of "click" lock came, and Jane Mo got up and walked to the French window Under the night wind, Shen Chu''s steps were steady and confident. Her letting go is not only Xiaoyue''s opportunity, but also her own opportunity. Watching the car start and drive out of the villa... Jane Mo stood there and couldn''t move for a long time. Until Gu Beichen surrounded her and took her into his strong chest "Thinking again?" Gu Beichen was dissatisfied, and his voice was gloomy and dumb. Jane Mo smiled and leaned her head on Gu Beichen. "I just feel... There are no people in the world who are always stuck in mud, only people who don''t want to come out!" However, the gear of fate sometimes blocks those who want to escape, just like a pair of giant hands, imprisoning people''s soul "Qin Shao," Morson hurried over, "sent someone to London and got the news that... Jane Mo did have a child, but she died two years ago!" "Really?" Shi Shaoqin narrowed his narrow eyes slightly. In his tone, he couldn''t tell whether it was coldness or doubt. Mosen nodded, "the news found by the Chen family is also..." Shi Shaoqin''s good-looking mouth gently overflowed with a thin smile. He opened his mouth faintly, "when you can''t seal everyone''s mouth, the best way is to tell the lie as the truth." "Qin Shao means..." Mosen didn''t understand. Shi Shaoqin''s sight was as deep as the sea, and he couldn''t see the edge. "It seems that there is another child..." Chapter 679 Mosen widened his eyes, "that is to say... Shen Hao''s last visit to Spencer may really be because of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo''s children?" At the end, he was surprised by his words! After all, we fought for so long that no one thought about the years when Jane Mo left, or even such a mistake. Morson thought and looked at Shi Shaoqin I saw a deep smile on the corner of his beautiful mouth. It was hard to tell whether it was cold or strange... But it seemed to be mixed with some joy. "Qin Shao," asked Morson, "do you need to confirm it?" "No!" Shi Shaoqin said faintly, "don''t confirm, or even... Don''t pay attention to this direction." "Huh?" Morson didn''t understand. To be exact, he didn''t understand. But when did he understand and see the man in front of him? Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin and his sight became deep. Gradually, he buried the emotion overflowing from the bottom of his eyes in the bottom of his heart. Without saying anything more, Mohsen bowed slightly and left the study In the study, there was a dark silence. From the moment the door opened to the moment it closed, the faint light in the corridor slipped in and disappeared again. It was always filled with a gloomy atmosphere. Shi Shaoqin went to the bedside and did not pull the curtains. His career was very broad A crescent moon hung on the ink sky, and few stars showed solitude. Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes and didn''t know where his sight fell on it... Just, the smile from the corners of his mouth became clearer and clearer. "Juechi," said Shi Shaoqin, opening his lips softly, "people, sometimes it can''t be regarded as an emergency... What about the conditions promised to you?" His eyes were filled with a dark smile, "always, what should come... Is to come!" Shi juechi suddenly opened his eyes. Tired, he slept soundly these days. However, after talking with Shi Shaoqin at that time, he was very restless. I won''t naively think that Shaoqin will let anyone go However, I don''t know why, he is worried about what will happen... And soon! "By no means, why haven''t you slept yet?" Xiao Siyue slowed down and came in. Unexpectedly, he saw Shi juechi awake. Shi Jue Chi glanced at her, "Why are you here so late?" "I came to Carney and came." Xiao Siyue said, turning the light on a little, "listen to Carney, have you talked with Qin Shao? What''s the result?" They don''t worry about Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, but they know clearly that this will be the fuse between Shi juechi and Shi Shaoqin. "Shaoqin agreed..." Shi juechi said, ignoring Xiao Siyue''s surprise, and asked, "what''s the big deal in Mo palace these two days?" Xiao Siyue shook her head. "It''s all on the road." Shi Juxi frowned, "there''s nothing special?" He asked again uneasily. "I haven''t heard..." Xiao Siyue pondered. "Because you and Qin Shao haven''t settled yet, I''ve been paying attention and didn''t find anything." Shi juechi''s face darkened. "You didn''t find it, maybe... Shaoqin didn''t want you to find it at all." "Probably not..." Xiao Siyue said definitely. "Qin Shao seems to have been obsessing about this, or deliberately forgetting something. I''ll give you some news, but he doesn''t care." Shi juechi looked at Xiao Siyue again. He didn''t speak any more. He just prayed... He thought too much. ¡­¡­ Chen Xuan stood at the door of the master bedroom, holding the freshly cooked bird''s nest porridge in his hand for a long time, but he didn''t have the courage to knock it down. On weekdays, Li Jinxi likes to quarrel with him most. Now... She''s back, but her heart seems to be lost. He can''t face the cold face, not to speak or ignore... But everything is mechanical and mindless. He was suddenly afraid of Li Jinxi. Such fear originated from loss! "Dong Dong!" Chen Xuan knocked at the door after all. He had to knock at the door in his own house. He was a bad man. Pushing the door in, Li Jinxi stood in front of the window, and the whole person overflowed the empty space without soul. Hearing the voice, Li Jinxi turned and looked at Chen Xuan. On his haggard face, there was no confidence and style in the past. While she tortured herself like this, she tortured Chen Xuan. Chen Xuan came forward. "After supper, go to bed early..." his voice was very soft and soft. "Your body hasn''t recovered yet. Don''t always stand like this. It''s not good!" Li Jinxi didn''t answer. He just went to one side and sat down. He took a bowl and ate without a bite "Just now Jian Mo called..." Chen Xuan said, and saw Li Jinxi''s action stop. "Said your cell phone couldn''t get through." "Power off!" Li Jinxi replied lightly. Chen Xuan sighed, "it''s not convenient for her to come to see you now. She''s worried about you." Li Jinxi held the spoon tightly and didn''t say anything. He just hung his eyes and continued to eat Long and dense eyelashes cover the moist fundus of the eyes, but how to cover it when sadness comes? "Pop!" Tears fell into the bowl uncontrollably, and then hurt Chen Xuan''s heart. He came forward, hugged Li Jinxi, and buried his painful face in her neck "Jinxi, Jinxi... Don''t do this, will you?" Chen Xuan''s voice was mixed with forbearing pain. "You can torture me, but don''t do this to yourself... Do you have to let me die so that you can suffer less?" Tears, can no longer control falling down. Indifference is just a disguise. She is so sad that she is about to suffocate like being pressed by a stone Li Jinxi closed his eyes, his hand holding the bowl trembled slightly, and tears slipped from his closed eyes... Spread around the corners of his mouth. The salty and astringent taste not only stimulates the taste buds, but also spreads the sadness and pain of the whole body. She doesn''t know what to do... She doesn''t know! All is pain! She couldn''t let go of the fact that her eldest brother died in front of her, but... She loved Chen Xuan so much that she couldn''t get away! What is she going to do? Sadness filled the huge apartment. Originally, it was warm and free to love... Now, it seems that there is nothing else but pain. In the night of Los Angeles, the strong wind rises and blows all over the world. It is like a devil stretching out its claws and preparing to start on "food" Jian Mo lies in Gu Beichen''s arms playing with his mobile phone, or should we say chatting with Jian Jie again. "It''s time to go to bed..." Gu Beichen looked at the text message from time to time, half dead with anger, or smiling happy Jian Mo, "Xiao Jie should also go to bed." "Yes!" Jane answered, but the typing didn''t stop. Gu Beichen was helpless, but his eyes were spoiled. "Sleep!" Gu Beichen''s voice is indisputable. Jane murmured again and was still typing Chapter 680 Gu Beichen simply took away her mobile phone and listened to Jian Mo start shouting, "I haven''t told the milk bag... HMM..." The words behind Jian Mo didn''t have time to say. All of them were swallowed into his mouth by Gu Beichen. With a gentle and overbearing kiss, Jian Mo struggled meaningfully, and then entangled with Gu Beichen Now the body can''t be relieved. Always give yourself some small rewards occasionally to comfort the empty and lonely soul? Thinking, Jane Mo simply circled Gu Beichen''s neck and responded more warmly Of course, the final outcome is... Gu Beichen reluctantly takes a cold shower, and Jian Mo continues to send unfinished text messages. Jian Jie looked at Jian Mo and clearly wanted to comfort him, but he pretended that Gao Leng didn''t know, and his little face unconsciously overflowed with a smile The little finger is flying on the mobile phone screen: good night, Mommy! Kiss daddy for me! Jane Mo was warm in her heart and replied to the past: good night, little milk bag! Put down your cell phone and see Gu Beichen take a cold bath and leave the bathroom Jian Mo looked painfully at Gu Beichen, who was naked and only wiped his wet hair with a bath towel, and enjoyed it with leisure. "I haven''t seen you exercise," Jane Mo wondered. "How do you keep your figure?" Gu Beichen is very generous to let Jian Mo appreciate, from face to figure, to size... He is very confident! "Natural beauty!" Gu Beichen spoke solemnly. Jane Mo smiled. "Yes, yes, you are the national husband..." she looked jealous. "If you don''t have a little skin appearance, there aren''t so many women Xiao think." Gu Beichen frowned and took the hair dryer to blow his hair. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo shouted softly. Gu Beichen looked at her. Jane Mo got up slightly, "you said... Is there a woman who treats you as YY''s object when she is empty, lonely and cold, and then what?" "..." Gu Beichen heard this, and immediately his handsome face was tight and shrouded in a layer of haze. "Ha ha..." Jian Mo looked at him and laughed. "You''re all right. In fact, you can go to the water area of the Los Angeles forum. Well, it''s interesting." Gu Beichen said coldly, "don''t look at those messy things all day." "Entertainment!" Jane Mo lay down. "Go and have a look... I''m asleep!" With teasing Gu Beichen''s little happiness, Jane Mo closed her eyes... Although she was not particularly sleepy, she soon fell asleep when Gu Beichen went to bed and fished her into her arms again. Gu Beichen has done the most regretful thing in his life because of Jian Mo''s "ridicule" to see the Los Angeles forum and the so-called "far apart" water area plate. Looking at those wolf like women above, he was speechless about his unruly and unlimited research on size problems, endurance, how many postures he could have, and so on. What''s more exaggerated is that those women imagined themselves as Jane Mo and studied which posture he would be excited and sensitive Gu Beichen''s face was so dark that he quit the forum and looked at Jian Mo, who was very stable in his arms. He was angry and funny, "it seems... You didn''t think less of these things before." Gu Beichen gently put down his mobile phone and dimmed the bedside lamp. Without disturbing Jian Mo, he moved his body down and prepared to go to bed. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo suddenly murmured. Gu Beichen frowned invisibly, thinking that Jian Mo woke up "Milk bag let me say good night to you..." Jane Mo opened her mouth again, but her eyes were closed. After saying that, the corner of her mouth still overflowed with an intoxicating smile. Gu Beichen found that he really didn''t love this little woman enough Sleep and seduce him! With a dark sigh, Gu Beichen closed his eyes and entered the dream with Jian Mo in his arms The next day, after blowing all night, the wind stopped and the sun was particularly good. However, the fallen leaves all over the yard seem more depressed "I''ll use your mobile phone!" After eating breakfast, Jane Mo leaned out her hand and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen didn''t think about it, so he handed Jian Mo his mobile phone. "Tut Tut, aren''t you afraid of any secrets for me to see?" Jane Mo joked, "do you know that men think their wives will do the most terrible things for themselves, and the first three have to look at their mobile phones." "I have no secrets!" Gu Beichen said indifferently, "it''s you. It seems that you don''t want me to see your mobile phone..." "Because I have a secret..." Jane Mo smiled and looked for the browser on Gu Beichen''s mobile phone. Because of understanding, so... Jian Mo is sure that Gu Beichen will not be bored to eliminate browsing traces. Sure enough Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen meaningfully. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked back at her suspiciously. Jian Mo looked down at his mobile phone again, looked at Gu Beichen''s browsing traces on the Los Angeles forum, and immediately laughed, "ha ha... You really went to see the water area? Ha ha..." "..." Gu beichenjun''s face was dark, but it was fleeting, and Jian Mo had no time to catch it. He took a sip of coffee and asked leisurely, "you can still laugh so happy to see so many women thinking about your husband... No wonder Xiaojie always doubts your IQ!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Now, Jane Mo is speechless. Every time, as long as Gu Beichen and Jian Jie talk about her IQ, she doesn''t want to talk to the father and son She''s smart, okay! "I call it a life tonic, okay?" Jian Mo threw Gu Beichen''s mobile phone onto the table, "no fun!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips hooked a faint smile and looked at Jian Mo spoiled, "no matter what you are, you are my wife, I like you..." "It''s over!" Jane Mo blinked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "what''s over?" "Your words..." Jane Mo held back a smile, "I really want to vomit!" "..." Gu Beichen didn''t hold his face, and suddenly the darkness sank down. On one side, aunt Luo, who brought the juice, was already smiling because of Gu Beichen''s slightly distorted expression, "little madam, tease Chen more and less... It''s just an expression on weekdays. Look, how rich it is now!" "Well, I''ll try..." Jane Mo took the juice and drank it. She got up calmly. "I''ll go upstairs and change my clothes first." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s slightly clumsy appearance upstairs and shook his head reluctantly... But the bottom of his eyes was full of laughter. Jane Mo changed into warm clothes, took a woolen cloak and prepared to go downstairs Just opened the door, the voice of SMS came from the mobile phone. She stopped and opened it. It was another anonymous text message "Mo''er, how''s the child?" It seems that it is warm, but it shows a gloomy cold Jian Mo looked at the address and gradually frowned... Shi juechi called her Mo Mo, and there were only two people who would call her Mo''er. One is ah Chen, the other is Shao Shi Chapter 681 Jane Mo subconsciously stroked her lower stomach, and her hand holding the mobile phone also tightened up. The uneasiness that has been lingering in her heart is filled with the nerves of her whole body. Shao Shi disappeared for several months. Did he appear again? Jane Mo''s eyebrows were screwed together because she was nervous, and her hands caressing her stomach were tightened a little. Xu Shi felt the tension of the mother, and Xiao Yan moved uneasily in her stomach. It seemed to comfort Jian Mo, and it seemed to be afraid that she could not be born "Mo''er?" A soft cry came. "Don''t call me!" Jian Mo subconsciously roared, but when she looked up and looked at Gu Beichen standing at the door, eagle eyes looked at her deeply, she subconsciously and hurriedly hid her mobile phone behind her. Gu Beichen looked at Hejian Mo suspiciously and glanced at her back arm, "what''s the matter?" "No, nothing..." Jane moo pulled her lower lip, took a deep breath, and hurriedly said, "I, I just have free hands. I ordered a mischief. It''s so scary!" As she spoke, Jane Mo was afraid that Gu Beichen would see through her trance. She hurried forward, hugged Gu Beichen and sought comfort. Gu Beichen gently took Jian Mo into his arms. Mo Tong couldn''t see to the end, but his voice said softly: "don''t look at those messy things in the future... You just like to look blindly on the Internet and make yourself nervous!" "HMM..." Jian Mo answered softly. In Gu Beichen''s arms, the uneasiness slowly disappeared. Went to the company. As usual, Gu Beichen worked. While Jane Mo ate, drank and had fun, she went to tease the people in the design department. For the president''s wife, people in the design department like it very much This is a world that speaks with strength. When a woman, she can be charming and soft... She can be independent and confident. From the beginning, many people said that she became Gu Beichen''s wife, and slowly, it will become recognition. The plan of the opera house needs to be changed, and group B of the design department is obviously as busy as the top... Because Gu Beichen explicitly and implicitly issued some orders, they won''t "trouble" Jane Mo unless they have to decide something together. "You don''t look very well..." Shen Chu poured water into Jian Mo, "is there something wrong?" Jane Mo shook her head. "I don''t know why. It''s going to be born in two months. On the contrary, I''m more worried..." Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo''s big belly, "is every mother so nervous with you?" At the same time, a touch of sadness crossed her eyes. "Who knows?" Jane Mo''s answer was ambiguous. After all, when she was pregnant with a milk bag, she was not so... And would be upset. The reason why she resisted to face all the time. In fact, the anonymous text message this morning gave her the answer. Shao Shi''s existence, ah Chen''s past... Everything may involve a lot of accidents. Jane Mo gently stroked her stomach to make Xiao Yan feel at ease "Eh?" Suddenly, Shen Chu said softly, and then looked at the ring on Jian Mo''s hand with a slight frown. Feeling something wrong with Shen Chu, Jane Mo looked up... Looked at the ring on her hand along her line of sight, and then raised her eyebrow. "Don''t think there''s nothing..." Jane Mo tilted her mouth and smiled proudly. "If you want to see another man send you!" Shen Chu stared at her angrily. "Just now your hand moved back, I seem to see a touch of light..." she hesitated and continued, "it doesn''t feel like the reflection of diamonds?" Jane Mo raised her hand, looked at the blue diamond ring, looked at it for a while, frowned and said, "seriously, I''ve seen it too..." "Hello..." Shen Chu rubbed around Jian Mo, "it''s just your general manager Gu. What''s the secret in it?" "You''ve seen too many dog blood dramas?" Jane Mo immediately rolled her eyes, "or have you seen too many detective films?" Shen Chu didn''t mind Jian Mo''s sarcasm, but picked his eyebrow and said, "aren''t you curious when you found it?" Such a question, Jane Mo immediately had some doubts in her heart. Shen Chu looked at her dull face and knew that she had thought about it "Why not..." Shen Chu smiled badly. "I sent the ring to cut. I can''t tell what microchip is hidden in it!" Jane Mo immediately covered the retracted hand of the ring with her hand... It was like someone wanted to rob her favorite thing. "Virtue..." Shen Chu couldn''t stand glancing, "what do you say, what are you really?" She retreated a little. "Although the diamond is not small, how small a chip should be put?" "..." Jane Mo knew she had been fooled. Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo''s slightly angry look and continued proudly: "besides... The diamond is so hard. Cut it and put it in. When it doesn''t look worn at all, it can be perfectly spliced into one... Do you think it''s possible?" "..." Jian Mo was speechless. Shen Chu added hot water to Jian Mo''s cup. "It''s said that pregnant people like to think all day... I think you''re the same." She put the cup aside Jian Mo, "thinking all day..." she shook her head helplessly, "Xiao Yan has been eight months. Can Beichen allow accidents?" All these social gatherings have been pushed. They go to and from work together every day and at any time... What accidents can there be? Jane Mo''s nervous mood gradually relaxed She looked at Shen Chu with gratitude at the bottom of her eyes, but said stiffly, "who said I was thinking?" "Your face..." Shen Chu didn''t give Jane face. Jian Mo disliked Shen Chu and said discontentedly, "what are you always telling the truth?" The words fell, and the two immediately looked at each other and smiled ¡­¡­ Jian Jie is practicing piano in a music teacher. Although Su Junli is a tutor from childhood, diligence is indispensable the day after tomorrow. But recently, he has only practiced one song... And this song is for Xiao Yan! The little hand is free on the black-and-white key flexibly, and I can''t see the Caton and rustiness at all Suddenly, the sound of the piano stopped suddenly. Jian Jie''s mouth popped down and then looked at the teacher''s door... Within sight, he couldn''t see anyone. He slowly lowered his hand, and there was no tension or fear on his small face... It was just a pair of black pupils turning ''tilu tilu''. Rubbed off the seat, Jane Jie thought, or slowly walked to the teacher''s door His steps were slow and light. When he approached the door, he stopped to listen to the sound... But there was nothing outside. He frowned, and Jian Jie put his little hand gently on the doorknob... Suddenly opened it! "Ah --" Chapter 682 The scream came, and the thin eardrum was about to crack Jian Jie helplessly looked at the person calling at the door, "you want to scare people, but you''re scared?" "Bad little Jay, smelly little Jay..." stomped angrily, "Why are you scaring me?" "..." Jane Jie''s face was helpless, "wrong, you scared me. You were too nervous to be scared!" "I don''t care. You scare me, hum!" One by one, he tooted his mouth and stared at his big eyes. In that way, he was somewhat arrogant and cute. "Well, well, I scared you..." Jane Jie, a little gentleman, didn''t argue with them one by one, but asked suspiciously, "Why are you here?" With that, he took one by one small hands into the music room, closed the door and walked to the piano. "I don''t know. My mother and an uncle argued all night last night..." one by one, "then I''ll be here today." Two small figures sat down on the piano stool. The sun penetrated the glass and projected on them, just like a pair of Dolls... It''s beautiful and outrageous. "If I didn''t know you were here to go to school, I wouldn''t come..." when it comes to this one by one, I''m obviously dissatisfied, "I can only see my mother once a week. I hate it!" Jane Jie suddenly felt a little stuffed in her heart, "you can see me once a week. I''ll take a long time..." "Huh?" One by one patronize angry, did not hear clearly. "Nothing..." Jane Jie didn''t explain much, but asked some questions with concern. "What are you looking at?" One by one, he found that Jian Jie had been looking at the door, with his long eyelashes flapping in doubt. Jane Jie shook her head, "nothing..." He replied, but there was a strange feeling in his heart. It seems that... Someone always looks inside from the side of the door glass. Just one by one, is he thinking too much behind, or is there really someone else? Jane Jie thought in her heart, but she talked with each other calmly... Spencer is full of surveillance everywhere. In the school, from social workers to teachers, daddy has arranged many people. Shouldn''t there be any problem? ¡­¡­ Jian Mo''s nervousness in the morning was much better by Shen Chu. The two chatted for a while. Jian Mo didn''t bother Shen Chu to modify the design drawing and went upstairs. With a "Ding", when the elevator arrived, Jane Mo''s mobile phone also heard the sound of SMS arrival. Jane Mo took out her mobile phone and crossed it as she walked out... Another anonymous message! "Is the child important or something else?" The mobile phone fell from its hand to the ground. Jian Mo looked in horror at the mobile phone whose shell had fallen off on the ground, and was still in shock. Susan came out of the secretary room at the right time. She looked at Jane Mo and the mobile phone on the ground... Frowned and walked forward. "Young lady?" Susan shouted and tried to pick up her cell phone. "Don''t move!" Jane Mo shouted quickly, and then she attached herself to pick it up. Susan didn''t move her cell phone, but picked up the case and helped Jane Mo up The mobile phone screen is still on, and Susan subconsciously looks... She wants to see what scares Jane mo. Unfortunately, the speed of Jane''s mobile phone was so fast that she didn''t see anything. "Just fainted slightly..." Jane Mo said calmly, taking over the mobile phone case handed over by Susan. There is a crack on it. "Don''t tell ah Chen." "But..." Susan hesitated. Jian Mo sighed, "it''s normal for a pregnant woman to have such a situation, and you know... If he knows, he promises to put down everything in his hand and go to the hospital first... And the result is that it doesn''t matter." Because Jian Mo is pregnant now and Gu Beichen is careful, Susan and Xiao Jing know some routine problems of pregnant women very well. Knowing that what Jian Mo said is true, they nodded. "If you feel uncomfortable, you must take the initiative to say oh!" Susan asked with certainty. Jane Mo smiled, "I''m more nervous than anyone, this child..." Susan thought about it and smiled, "I''ll get the documents to Chen shaopi first." "I''ll go to the tea room to eat..." Jane Mo said as usual. Susan nodded, turned around and walked to Gu Beichen''s office Jane Mo stood there for a while before holding her mobile phone and went to the tea room... But after entering, she had no appetite and just thought about the anonymous SMS in the morning and now. Endure it, Jane Mo cuts off the text message and wants to try whether she can reply to the past... When she sees the successful sending, she can''t tell the taste in her heart. Shi Shaoqin looked at the text message replied by Jian Mo: that''s my business, don''t worry. The beautiful corners of the mouth gradually overflow with a treacherous smile, which spreads... Until it floats on the surface of the fundus. Shi Shaoqin didn''t reply to the past, but said faintly: "it doesn''t need to make big moves to arrange people near Spencer, just produce some necessary effects." Mosen looked at Shi Shaoqin and answered, "yes!" Shi Shaoqin got up and paced back and forth with his hands in his pockets If a person is too nervous and worried, he will make a wrong judgment... This is the most direct response of human nature, and care is chaos. He can not take the initiative to move Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, but he didn''t promise... Others didn''t move and didn''t promise. Except Chen, others came to push things forward! ¡­¡­ Jane Mo waited for a while. Seeing that the anonymous text message didn''t reply, she sighed heavily and deleted the anonymous text message and what she sent. Although ah Chen won''t look at her mobile phone, she doesn''t want him to worry Jane Mo took a cake with her and lay back on the sofa eating... Chewing slowly. If you don''t tell ah Chen, will there be no prevention? Jane Mo swallowed the cake and sat up a little straight Anyway, whenever she is around ah Chen, she should be ok... As long as she doesn''t act willfully, she believes that ah Chen can protect her and Xiao Yan. Jane Mo lowered her eyes, looked at her stomach with a smile and said softly, "Xiao Yan, come on with your mother!" Xiao Yan got the feeling and moved Jane Mo immediately smiled. That kind of happiness made her full of fighting spirit! Except for those two messages, Jane is in a good mood all day Have lunch with Gu Beichen at noon, and then take a nap with him. Then she works with him and enjoys the afternoon... When she is bored, she goes to the design department. This kind of thing happens every day, but Jane Mo doesn''t feel monotonous and boring at all. You Gu Beichen, for Xiaoyan... She has nothing unbearable. "That day, I said, go and see Xiao Yan''s clothes and wait?" Gu Beichen inquired. "Don''t go..." Jane Mo shook her head. "If you know the gender, just let Susan be ready." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo suspiciously and deeply, as if to see through her, "doesn''t it mean that it''s a kind of happiness for parents to choose what they need for the coming life?" He said softly, "why don''t you want to go again?" Chapter 683 Jane Mo quickly scratched a touch of emotion at the bottom of her eyes, "I..." she sighed secretly, "I just want to think again, will you cover the venue because of my big stomach!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at Jane Mo suspiciously. "I''m afraid that others will squeeze me..." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows, "and then choose the private field of the local tyrant slowly." Gu Beichen showed a shallow smile at the corners of his mouth and didn''t speak. Jane Mo came forward, raised her eyebrows and said with a smile, "tut Tut, I really guessed it..." she glanced, "this is the reason why I don''t want to go. How does it affect the sales performance?" "I can still earn this money." Gu Beichen shook his head and sighed. He went to get his coat and put it on Jian mo. "I missed Xiao Jie''s time. This time, I don''t want to Miss Xiao Yan''s." Jane Mo felt guilty. She didn''t want to go to a crowded place because she was afraid of something happening But think about it, ah Chen must also have some concerns. It''s certain that he is too nervous. On the contrary, ah Chen is more worried. When I arrived at Huaxi department store, sure enough, it was originally the peak consumption period, but I was informed that the business was suspended for two hours because of circuit maintenance. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo and went directly to the floor of the children''s zone from the underground parking lot What catches the eye is a dazzling array of infant Commodities... Clothes, milk bottles, toys... And so on. "President, President''s wife!" The floor manager came forward and said hello, "the baby area is over there. Please follow me!" The party went to the baby area, but the shopping guides in other areas stared at Gu Beichen and Jian Mo one by one "Hey, I used to see it in various reports," a shopping guide whispered with a sigh. "I think it''s just like that. But now I''m really envious and jealous of abusing dogs face to face." "Just..." another shopping guide answered in a low voice with a smile. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo ignored the "appreciation" and comments of the people. One was ignored and the other was used to it. "This one?" Jane Mo suddenly took a set of small clothes and turned to Gu Beichen. "Look, how beautiful." Gu Beichen looked at the little clothes on Jian Mo''s hand, "tender yellow?" He frowned softly. Jane nodded, "you see, how distressed..." "But Xiao Yan is a little boy!" Gu Beichen said calmly. Jane was stunned, then looked at the little clothes in her hand and frowned, "baby... Doesn''t it matter?" Gu Beichen walked forward, his thin lips overflowing with a deep smile, "we can consider having another daughter... Huh?" As soon as Jian Mo heard this, she raised her eyes and looked up at Gu Beichen''s deep ink pupil. The corners of her mouth overflowed with a smile again... That smile was full of beauty under fantasy. "You know... It must be a daughter next?" Jane Mo handed the small clothes to the shopping guide and skimmed her mouth. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and picked baby products together. He said meaningfully, "there will always be..." Jane Mo''s mouth smiled and her eyes became crescent moon During the day, the depression caused by anonymous text messages dissipated at this moment. Nothing can make a mother happier than the power of a child... This can only be realized by a mother. After wandering for more than an hour, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo originally planned to choose only the supplies within one year of Xiaoyan''s age I''ve been shopping for three times since I was born, but I can''t live with all my personal products from autumn to winter. They can also guess whether Xiao Yan is fat or thin by imagination, or what he will look like in a certain dress Originally, the shopping guides selling infant products are used to the warm look of every parent shopping, but when comparing Gu Beichen and Jian mo... They have only one feeling. Sure enough, I was the first one. Everything depends on guess and imagination They also want to tell Gu Beichen and Jian Mo that they are popular now and will not be popular later next year! Of course, Huaxi department store is under the emperor''s banner. People are also the president and wife of the emperor. They have a lot of money... It''s good to buy when it''s not popular. They also break their own heart. ¡­¡­ Night fell and the lights were on. Li Yunze sent her to Spencer one by one, so she and Jian Jie were in the same class... He was certainly relieved to have a little Zhengtai to take care of his daughter. On the other hand, Li Yunze and Gu Beichen have a brotherly relationship. The two children have more contacts. Even if they can''t merge into one in the future, it''s good to have a care. "Thank you, Granny LAN!" One by one, it was sweeter than Jane Jie''s mouth, took the meal handed over by Aunt LAN, and gave it to her. Jane Jie doesn''t care, just a little absent-minded. "Xiao Jie, what''s the matter?" Aunt LAN put the food in front of him and asked suspiciously. With a hook in his mouth, Jane Jie shook his head, "it''s all right... Thank grandma LAN!" Aunt LAN smiled at Jianjie''s head and continued to distribute food. Eat one by one, but Jane Jie has some thoughts He noticed that it was the children and the people who worked in the canteen every day... But I don''t know why, he always felt that there were eyes in the dark. Moreover, this feeling lasted three days Jian Jie finally told Gu Beichen his worry: Daddy, I always think someone is watching me in the dark. Gu Beichen looked at the text message sent by Jian Jie, frowned slightly and went back to the past: I will deal with it! Jane Jie: OK! Jane Jie: don''t tell mommy, or she doesn''t have enough brains and thinks nonsense! Gu Beichen smiled and replied: I know. The study was quiet. Gu Beichen went to the window and pulled out a cigarette... But it was not lit. The eagle''s eyes fell deep in the villa yard, the ink was empty, and the night lights were soft... But it seemed that it was a little desolate because it was going to enter winter. When the "buzzing" mobile phone vibrated, Gu Beichen threw the unlit cigarette into the ashtray, took out his mobile phone, saw that it was Xiao Jing, and picked it up "Did you find out who it was?" Gu Beichen asked. Xiao Jing replied, "there''s a general direction. It''s all on the road... Shen Hao checked there. The news may come out from there, but it''s not necessarily Shen Hao." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil became deep, "it won''t be Shen Hao." If it were him, he wouldn''t wait until now "Will..." Xiao Jing hesitated and didn''t continue. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gradually narrowed. For Shi Shaoqin, he is the only one who is not sure... He doesn''t have to do what you think he won''t do. "If it''s him," Gu Beichen said faintly, "it''s impossible to have no action for several days in a row." After a slight pause, he continued, "strengthen the security around and inside the school..." Jane Mo gradually clenched the milk cup in her hand... Even her breathing became heavy. Is it... Shao Shi''s child is not Xiao Yan, but a milk bag? Chapter 684 Jane Mo looked at the light and shadow of the study in the gap, closed her eyes, took a deep breath, and then turned around She can''t go in, or ah Chen will worry if she hears it. How can Shaoshi know the existence of milk bags? Ah Chen protected the milk bag so tightly that they rarely see the milk bag now... Just in case. Don''t scare yourself. You can''t mess up your sense of propriety, and you can''t mess up ah Chen''s protection because of your worry... You can''t! After drinking milk and washing, Jane Mo lay in bed reading, but she didn''t read a word from beginning to end. Her head is a little dizzy, as if she thought a lot of things at once, and it seems that she didn''t think of anything... In short, it''s messy and very empty. When footsteps came, Jane Mo quickly turned the book over a few pages In due time, Gu Beichen pushed the door and came in. "Why haven''t you slept yet?" Gu Beichen saw Jian Mo looking at him and frowned slightly. Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, smiled and said angrily, "I can''t sleep without you!" Gu Beichen immediately softened his eyes. He was still angry, and suddenly turned into a spoiled smile. "Are you finished?" Jane Mo turned to the topic, "didn''t she say there were a lot of things tonight?" Gu Beichen took off his clothes and walked in the direction of the bathroom. "I''m afraid you can''t sleep and work faster..." at the same time, he pushed the bathroom door and looked back at Jane Mo with a teasing look. Jane Mo stared at him angrily, "wash you quickly!" Gu Beichen smiled at his thin lips, and the eagle''s eyes became deep... He took a deep look at Jian Mo and turned into the bathroom. He washed quickly. Even if Jane Mo tried to cover it up, Gu Beichen still saw some uneasy emotions in the bottom of her eyes. Recently, she always seems to have this situation from time to time Gu Beichen took Jian Mo into his arms and dimmed the bedside lamp. "It''s late. Go to bed!" "Hmm..." Jane Mo made a stuffy voice in her throat, moved slightly and closed her eyes. As usual, as long as Gu Beichen is around, Jian Mo''s anxiety can always disappear quickly, but... Not today. Not only did it not, but the complex emotion became stronger and stronger. Jane Mo moved her body slightly and sighed secretly Don''t scare yourself. If the anonymous message is really sent by Shao Shi, he should only know the existence of Xiao Yan As long as she stays with ah Chen honestly and doesn''t go anywhere, she won''t be in great danger. Jane Mo''s closed eyes trembled slightly. She kept breathing deeply and secretly to prevent her body from trembling because of tension Xiao Yan, you will come to this world safely... You will, won''t you? Jane Mo asked again and again in her heart, and no one answered her. Even Xiao Yan, who always likes to interact with her mother, is as quiet as water at this moment... I don''t know whether she is asleep or full of unknowns about her future, so she doesn''t know how to respond to Jian Mo at a loss. The world is full of peace and quiet. However, Jane Mo slept uneasily. She seemed to fall into her own nightmare, frowning and smiling, her body was always moving slightly, and she was very busy. Gu Beichen thought that Jian Mo slept uneasily, and he didn''t sleep soundly. He just observed her from time to time... He was afraid that she would press her stomach because of her dream. The dawn of winter is coming a little later. Early in the morning, the sky is covered with thick clouds, and the sunshine and flowers are particularly powerless. Because Jane Mo didn''t sleep well at night, it was obvious that the second weather color was not very good. "Today or at home..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo painfully, "have a rest, huh?" "Don''t..." Jian Mo''s soft voice came from Gu Beichen''s arms. "I can go to the company and sleep." Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo and didn''t refuse, "OK!" They washed, ate breakfast at home and went to the company together Because of Gu Beichen''s tension, now, no matter the people of emperor group or those who cooperate with Emperor Group... It is clear that he is very nervous about Jian Mo and her baby. In general, things that can be simplified will never complicate Gu Beichen. A "drop" came, and the internal telephone prompted that there was telephone access. Gu Beichen picked it up and listened to Susan say, "Chen Shao, president Zhang of senhan well cover factory has been here several times," her voice was a little hesitant. "Director Yu of the procurement department said that he wanted to ask you for instructions on the renewal of the contract." In short, Susan let Gu Beichen know the root of the matter and the problems to be solved. Gu Beichen looked at the documents in his hand and just saw the report on the real estate department of the emperor, the list of building materials procurement in the coming year, and some matters of pre purchase. "Let director Yu and president Zhang come up!" Gu Beichen spoke faintly, and there was no emotion in his voice. "OK!" Susan answered and hung up the inside line. Soon, director Yu came up with a middle-aged man Susan knocked on the door and opened it. "Chen Shao, director Yu and president Zhang are here." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered, without raising his head, signed his name on the document and timely ordered, "make two cups of coffee." Director Yu motioned to president Zhang to sit down opposite Gu Beichen. He didn''t speak, but waited for him to finish his work Zhang always fidgeted a little, and his ass was just beside the chair. He was ready to stand up at any time... At the bottom of his eyes, Gu Beichen was a little uneasy. When Gu Beichen finished signing the document, Susan also brought coffee in. "Let the planning department redo the two plans." he handed the document to Susan. His cold face made people a little timid. "If... Next time you send such a plan, the director of the planning department won''t come to work." "Yes!" Susan answered, "Chen Shao, there''s nothing else. I''ll go out first." Gu Beichen nodded slightly and then looked opposite When he saw president Zhang, his eagle eyes were slightly deep, and then he opened with a indifferent face: "the purchase volume of well covers in the community will be large next year. Give me a reason, Emperor real estate, want to use yours." President Zhang swallowed and said, "now the cost of cast iron is relatively high and easy to be stolen, and the composite material is easy to be affected by the weather, and this new type produced by our factory..." Gu Beichen looked at President Zhang when he said his advantages... Until President Zhang finished. "These reasons are not enough for you to get the share..." Gu Beichen said faintly. "Because of the pressure of the market and the interpersonal relationship... Senhan is really not enough to win the emperor''s order." Mr. Zhang was slightly discouraged and gave the final reason, "it''s just that it''s a man''s responsibility to support his family. No matter how difficult it is... I''ll try." "Is your wife still teaching night classes at night?" Suddenly, Gu Beichen asked. President Zhang was stunned and looked at him with a dull sight Chapter 685 President Zhang nodded, and then his face was a little bitter. "I don''t have the ability... My wife needs to work so hard." Director Yu suddenly turned into a homely conversation and frowned slightly, but then thought, Gu always loves his wife and is famous. Maybe there has been any intersection on weekdays? "The emperor''s cooperation should first focus on the ability, and then on the responsibility of the partners..." Gu Beichen said, "men who have a sense of responsibility for their families should be cooperation objects that can be considered." I was worried, but my eyes were not always bright. "But..." Gu Beichen''s voice has been bland. "Emperor has a lot of buildings in the new area next year. If I want to win, I want not only product quality, but also quantity!" "I understand..." president Zhang nodded. "If senhan can win the share of emperor next year, while ensuring the quantity, the quality will keep up!" "Yes!" Gu Beichen faintly answered and looked at director Yu, "draw up a procurement plan." "Yes, Mr Gu!" Director Yu got up after answering the voice, and president Zhang hurriedly stood up. Director Yu glanced at him and said to Gu Beichen, "President Gu, we''ll go out first..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered faintly and nodded slightly with President Zhang After director Yu took president Zhang out, he asked curiously, "so... Do you know president Gu? Or does your wife know the president''s wife?" President Zhang grinned and said happily, "I''m such a factory. How can I know president Gu?" He then said, "once, it was estimated that President Gu went to the night market to buy fried rice noodles for Mrs Gu. I happened to be in line, so I gave way to President Gu..." "That''s it?" Director Yu was stunned and joked, "it seems that comity is a virtue in the future... It doesn''t mean that small things can help big things!" The two said, they have entered the elevator At the same time, Jane Mo came out of the lounge with a water glass Gu Beichen got up, took the water cup and poured her a glass of water. "You know the man''s wife just now?" Jane Mo asked casually, "do you know people have night classes?" Gu Beichen took Jian Mo and sat on his lap. "You just came back and wanted to eat fried rice noodles... Remember?" Jane morhu smiled and nodded, "it''s hard for you to let a big president go to the night market to buy me that..." "There is no sincerity to comfort!" Gu Beichen smiled and complained, then said the episode of that night. "Just because you make a place, you give the purchase order..." Jian Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. "I said, Mr. Gu, it''s a miracle that the Emperor didn''t fall by you." "Of course not..." Gu Beichen reluctantly kissed at the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth. "Director Yu can bring general manager Zhang up to show that senhan''s quality is recognized by him... In addition, this man is good to his wife and responsible to his family, and his character can be trusted." Jane Mo hugged Gu Beichen''s neck. "Will you give more opportunities to every man who is good to his wife?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen held Jian Mo and began to sleep uneasily last night. The little woman was particularly tired of him today. "A woman is willing to change for a man and have children for him. Men should be grateful... And should work harder to be good to her." Jian Mo''s nose is a little sour, and her eyes are a little red... Even her eyes are filled with a thin mist. "Ah Chen, with you... I really have nothing to ask for in my life." Jane Mo said with a sob in her voice. Women, no matter what kind of women... In this life, is it not for such a man? Ken is good to himself, and can understand and understand himself? "Fool..." Gu Beichen said in a drowning voice, holding Jian Mo, didn''t speak again, but silently passed on his support. ¡­¡­ "Xiaojie, Xiaojie..." one by one suddenly ran over, squatted down beside Jianjie, turned his big eyes'' Gulu Gulu '', and asked in a mysterious whisper, "did you find... There seem to be more teachers in the school?" Jian Jie didn''t look, but continued to measure the things in his hand, "didn''t find..." "Really!" One by one, holding his knee with his small hand, said solemnly, "I haven''t seen the two teachers in front of you on the left and me on the right these two days." Jian Jie reluctantly stopped the action in his hand, looked at it one by one and asked, "I''m in front of the left, and you''re in front of the right... Isn''t it in the same direction?" "..." stunned one by one, and then suddenly, "yes..." Jian Jie continued to measure what he had in hand, "one by one, you have to take an oral English test tomorrow. Do you still have time to study strangers here?" "Ah!" One by one suddenly stood up, "I forgot..." The words fall, she has put aside. Jian Jie watched one by one running, and there was a sly smile in his black pupil... But such a smile became cold when he looked at the strange teacher one by one. There are so many daddy people in the school. These so-called "strangers" are either arranged by daddy or want to make his idea Thinking about it, Jane Jie got up with what had been straightened out and went to more places for teachers and children. He is a child and wants to resist adults. That''s nonsense. Only when you put yourself in more people is the safest Just thinking, Jian Jie suddenly brightened his eyes, looked at Shen Hao coming towards him, looked around and greeted him. "You came to me?" Jane Jie looked up and asked. Shen Hao nodded, looked around with a dignified face, squatted down, "you should be careful recently..." "What''s the matter?" Jane Jie looked confused, as if he didn''t know anything. Shen Hao looked at Jian Jie and rubbed his head. "Be careful anyway..." his tone was a little heavy, "don''t be alone, you know?" Jian Jie frowned and didn''t ask any more... Seeing Shen Hao''s worried look at him, he immediately got up and went to find Jia Mengting. It seems that telling Jian Jie to be careful is just by the way, and his purpose today is to find Jia Mengting. Day and night. No matter how turbulent the undercurrent is, the earth is still rotating at its speed. People''s life, on the surface, doesn''t matter. For several days, Jane Mo entered the early winter of Los Angeles when she would become restless as soon as she slept. The air is mixed with a cold breath. A gust of wind blows, which is chilly. "What time is the delivery inspection over?" Gu Beichen asked after Jane Mo called. "I have an appointment with Dr. Ge at eleven in the morning." Jane Mo replied with a smile, "didn''t you ask someone to talk about things at nine in the morning?" She said thoughtfully, "just after the conversation, the time is about the same." Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo deeply. He was distressed by her uneasiness, but found that he didn''t know what to do to eliminate her uneasiness Chapter 686 Gu Beichen drove all the way to the Emperor Group How indifferent and indifferent Jian Mo is during the day, and how restless and restless she is at night. Glancing at the back seat from the rearview mirror, Jian Mo is talking to Xiao Yan. It should be a warm atmosphere, but a stone is blocked in Gu Beichen''s heart. "Mo''er," Gu Beichen said, "after the birth inspection, go to school to see Xiaojie?" Jane Mo lifted her eyes and looked at the corners of her mouth. It was obvious that she swallowed the words that came to her mouth again. "No..." she looked at Gu Beichen in the rearview mirror and saw his doubts. "I send text messages to the milk bag every day. He''s safe... It''s good." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo from the rearview mirror again and answered, "OK!" At the right time, Gu Beichen stopped slowly at the red light at the intersection ahead Then he turned and looked at Jian Mo, "Mo''er, believe me, I will give Xiaojie the best protection." Jane Mo smiled. "I don''t believe you. Who else can I believe?" She knew that her anxiety didn''t hide from Gu Beichen, "now, I just hope the milk bag is safe and Xiaoyan can come to this world..." Winter will pass. Whether it''s Shao Shi or ah Chen''s past... She believes ah Chen can solve it. After Gu Beichen was busy, Jian Mo went to Huakang hospital for prenatal examination. It has been eight months. Everything is going well in the production inspection. Xiaoyan is also developing very well in all aspects "Don''t worry!" Dr. Ge smiled as he collected the instrument. "Wait more than a month, and you will see a healthy and fresh baby." Jian Mo has accumulated the uneasiness in his heart for days. At this moment, he can not think about it a little, and his heart is covered with joy. Dr. Ge looked at Jian Mo and sighed, "I''ve seen nervous parents. I''ve never seen you and Chen Shao so nervous..." she joked. "I''m afraid others don''t know how much you love and expect this love crystallization. Yes." Jane Mo let Dr. Ge joke, as long as Xiao Yan can be healthy, she is happy. He went out of the examination room with Dr. Ge. Li Yunze and Gu Beichen were talking outside. When they saw them coming out, they stopped talking. "Everything is fine..." Jian Mo said happily to Gu Beichen, and his eyes were obviously covered with a smile. "I''ve made a reservation and have dinner all the time?" Li Yunze asked. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and nodded... Because Xiao Yan didn''t have any situation, she was also a lot relaxed. Because she was in a good mood, Jian Mo had a big appetite for lunch... Suddenly, she became a person at the top of the food chain. "How is Jinxi these days?" Asked Jane mo. Li Yunze smiled astringently, "didn''t ask..." he paused, and then said, "if I ask more, she will be more stressed." "I''ll call her in the afternoon..." Jane Mo''s face was a little heavy. "If no one spoke with her, she would go into a dead end." Li Yunze smiled. "Shen Chu passed last night..." he paused. "She seems to have become different." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen. "People always change, and they always want to understand something they don''t understand..." "And you?" Li Yunze suddenly asked, and his sight became deep. Gu Beichen frowned slightly at the right time, and his sight towards Li Yunze became deep. "If you want to ask about ah Chen," Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen, "I don''t have anything I don''t understand... Just as I believe in him." As time approaches, Jian Mo knows... Li Yunze is afraid to ask her about Gu Beichen''s past. No matter what ah Chen''s past is, she will accept it even if it is dirty! However, Jane Mo didn''t expect that when some things were so bloody in front of her, it was not acceptable at all After lunch, Gu Beichen returned to the emperor group with Jian mo. "You take a break with you, huh?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo looked at the time and nodded. Maybe it was because the results of the birth test were too good, maybe it was because she didn''t sleep well for several days, and Jian Mo fell asleep in a short while. Gu Beichen just closed his eyes and pretended to sleep, but his head didn''t stop running at all. The Chen family has been forced to a desperate situation. It''s the people who went to Britain to check Mo''er''s past... It''s hard to guarantee that they won''t do anything to Xiao Jie. Besides, there is a Shi Shaoqin! It can be said that the defense of the school has been watertight so far. He is worried, but he is not afraid! Just hold on for another three months, and when Mo''er is born... The matter between him and Shi Shaoqin will be solved at one time! However, Gu Beichen didn''t think at the moment... Shi Shaoqin, who has grasped the degree of metamorphosis for the weakness of human nature, won''t give him these three months at all! When Jian Mo woke up, Gu Beichen was gone. She got out of bed with some sleepy eyes. She took her mobile phone to see the time. There were missed calls and text messages on it. Gu Beichen was afraid of affecting Jane Mo''s sleep. Before leaving, he turned off the mute for her mobile phone When I opened the phone, there were some who left with Su Jun in the evening and some who were anonymous together. Seeing the anonymity, Jane Mo''s heart ''clattered'' She took a deep breath and opened the text message. The first one is from Su Jun: Momo, Grandpa asked you and Chen Shao to come back for dinner on weekends! The second is anonymous text message: Mo''er, you want your child to be safe. Reply to me within an hour! Jane Mo''s instinctive and nervous She subconsciously looked at the time of receiving text messages. It was only five minutes and an hour away from now. She dialed the phone anonymously, but she didn''t reply immediately! The anonymous phone call came quickly. Jian Mo yelled at the phone: "Shao Shi, what happened to your milk bag?" Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, and the corners of his beautiful mouth overflowed with a gloomy smile, "what do you think?" His eyes were dark. "I didn''t expect... You have a son with Gu Beichen!" The treacherous words made Jane Mo nervous all over. "What do you want?" "What do you say?" Shi Shaoqin said softly. This tone can be said to be familiar to Jian Mo, "flower dance''s chocolate mousse is not bad!" "Shao Shi..." Jian Mo collapsed completely. Jian Jie likes to eat flower dance''s chocolate mousse very much, and Shao Shi''s contact with Jian Mo is to touch her preferences thoroughly. "But... The little guy doesn''t seem very willing to eat!" Shi Shaoqin''s voice came again, "well, it seems... I should change another one later." Jane Mo just opened her mouth and had no time to speak. There was a "beep beep" hang up sound in her mobile phone. Without thinking, she dialed Jane Jie''s phone, but the hint was that she couldn''t get through Now, Jane Mo''s nerves were on the verge of collapse... She opened the door of the lounge and walked out. Gu Beichen is not here, even Susan and Xiao Jing are not here! However, Jane Mo didn''t notice, but hurriedly pressed the elevator and went to the flower dance, the only one in Los Angeles on Fengyue road Chapter 687 With a ''ding'', the elevator reaching the 79th floor opens Gu Beichen took his pocket with one hand and walked out with a steady and slow step, followed by Xiao Jing. "All channels have already been staffed. If Shi Shao Qin will appear in Los Angeles, he will never deceive the eyeliner..." Xiao Jingbian walked around and said, "now, he is afraid that he will enter the Los Angeles City by unconventional channels." "No..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil became deep. "He was very confident in his ability, so he wouldn''t use that way." "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing hesitated. "You said... Will the people near the school really be Shi Shaoqin?" Gu Beichen stopped. The eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly and then suddenly opened, "it shouldn''t be..." he said with some hesitation, but the bottom of his eyes was firm. "The people of the Chen family are more likely." Xiao Jingmu showed his ruthless color and hissed coldly, "the dog jumped over the wall... The Chen family really wasted so many years of foundation." Gu Beichen looked back at Xiao Jing. "Playing with people''s hearts, no one can play with Shi Shaoqin..." paused. He said indifferently and without any emotion, "when a person puts himself completely in the dark, he will see anyone and everything in all the light." The reason is very simple. Standing in the dark with you, you can see everything in the bright place. However, it''s a truth that people standing in the bright place can''t see the dark place clearly. Xiao Jing sighed deeply, "the Chen family is now forced to take this part, and Chen Xuan is hampered by Li Jinxi..." he suddenly crossed the bottom of his eyes with a bloodthirsty coldness, and the corners of his mouth sneered, "why not..." Gu Beichen looked back again. The eagle looked at Xiao Jing with deep eyes Xiao Jing''s heart was suddenly cold and swallowed it secretly. He had gathered his strength and recovered his usual "special help" smiling face. "Hey, I''ll..." as soon as his eyes turned, "I''m kidding!" Gu Beichen still looked at him knowingly, with a haze on his cold, carved face. Xiao Jing ''clattered'' in his heart and grinned secretly Although he is now wandering in the gray area, he is living in the bright side. He is really far away from those ruthless and bloodthirsty dark lives "Chen Shao, I''m wrong!" Xiao Jing lowered his eyes and then looked at Gu Beichen with a flattering face. "That... The meeting has been more than half an hour. Madam Shao should wake up!" Sure enough... The sharp weapon against Gu Beichen is definitely a simple foam. He restrained his cold breath, turned and walked to the office At the right time, the elevator arrived again and Susan came out with a pile of documents. Gu Beichen''s hand was about to open the door of the office. Seeing Susan coming out of the elevator, he was inexplicably... His heart began to panic. Without thinking, he pushed the door open and walked to the lounge no one! The quilt was lifted and disorderly! Jane Mo is a neat person. Every time she gets up, she will spread the quilt neatly Bathroom, tea room... No one! Gu Beichen picked up his mobile phone and wanted to dial Jian mo... He didn''t dial out yet, but he called in as soon as he spoke. Gu Beichen saw that the call was put in the dark and the person in charge of Jian Mo as a bodyguard hurriedly picked it up and heard a calm voice inside "Chen Shao, madam Shao took a taxi and left!" "Where are you now?" Gu Beichen asked with a frozen voice. At the same time, people had walked to the elevator with big steps. Xiao Jing and Susan took a look at each other, hurriedly followed Gu Beichen, and exchanged their eyes at the right time Xiao Jing: Chen Shao and I are going to a meeting. Why aren''t you upstairs? Susan: I went downstairs to deliver the documents, thinking that the young lady was still sleeping! Xiao Jing: in extraordinary times, aren''t you adding chaos? Susan felt guilty and wronged: I can''t be blamed... Madam Shao knows the situation best. Who knows A "Ding" sound came, the elevator door opened, and Gu Beichen had stepped into the elevator. Xiao Jing glared at Susan fiercely, and the man followed in. Susan stood at the same place and looked at the closed elevator door more and more wrongly. Her voice was filled with guilt and self reproach. "How could young lady go out?" There was no one in the corridor except her. The elevator went straight down to the underground parking lot. Xiao Jing drove. He listened to Gu Beichen''s voice and said to his mobile phone, "keep up..." after a pause, his eagle eyes sank, "if necessary, directly stop the taxi." Then he hung up the phone and told Xiao Jing, "Fengyue road." Xiao Jing''s car has turned out of the underground parking lot, and the speed is fast but steady towards Fengyue road Because the speed was too fast, the traffic on the road avoided one after another along the way. Suddenly, the whistle sounded everywhere on the noisy road. A police car suddenly pulled the alarm in the back. Gu Beichen glanced from the reversing mirror and immediately called out "Your people follow my car, how..." Gu Beichen''s voice is cold to freezing, "... Is trying to catch me back?" The other party was stunned at first, and then accompanied with a smiling face, "Chen Shao said something? I think it must be a misunderstanding, misunderstanding... I''ll deal with it now!" Gu Beichen said nothing and hung up. Within two minutes, the police car that had followed had no direction! Gu Beichen kept dialing Jian Mo''s phone. Unfortunately, in order to let her sleep at ease, he turned it to silent Mo''er went out in such a hurry. He certainly didn''t expect to adjust the sound of his mobile phone. Xiao Jing''s speed has been lifting and wiping more than 200 miles... But he still feels slow. Gu Beichen has dialed out the phone again, "check the specific location of Jian Mo''s mobile phone signal... Send the navigation signal!" "Yes, Mr Gu!" The communication company hurried to answer. Gu Beichen closed his eyes and let himself calm down. The head is running fast. Jane Mo is a smart man. She doesn''t say, but he knows... She understands the current situation, so she will always be by his side. On the one hand, she has a sense of security... On the other hand, it also reassures him. Only children can make Jane Mo lose her thinking ability now! Xiao Yan was not born, so... It''s Xiao Jie! Gu Beichen suddenly opened his eyes, and the ink pupil emitted two sharp cold lights He took his cell phone and dialed Jane Jie, indicating that he couldn''t connect! Gu Beichen opened the GPS positioning software and began to locate Jian Jie''s position... When he prompted that Jian Jie was still in Spencer, he became more familiar with his vision. Xiao Jing looked at Beichen from the rearview mirror, and his eyes were worried "Xiao Jie is still at school. It seems... Someone is playing psychological tactics!" Gu Beichen''s voice was low to the lowest point, and it was particularly heavy in the narrow carriage. Xiao Jing''s foot weighed a little more when he stepped on the accelerator. He gritted his teeth and said, "Shi Shaoqin has come to Los Angeles?" Chapter 688 Gu Beichen didn''t answer Xiao Jing because he wasn''t sure. No amount of prevention is just prevention And such prevention, but there is no way to prevent the hearts of the people! Now, what can make Mo''er lose his reason and even his thinking ability is the child If he is Mo''er''s love, then the child is her life... That''s the nature and instinct of a mother! Xiaojie''s cell phone signal is blocked. If Shi Shaoqin did something before... It''s too simple to make Mo''er lose his mind and thinking ability. Thinking, the communication company has sent Jian Mo''s signal source to Gu Beichen''s mobile phone He opened it, looked at the moving red dot, and then slid the screen to expand Timely, stop at the position of the red dot and Gu Beichen looks... The displayed position is in flower dance! "Go to flower dance..." Gu Beichen said the details almost at the same time. Xiao Jing replied, "no more than ten minutes!" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but he felt uneasy and gradually spread He is afraid of time! Suddenly ''squeak - '' The harsh brake sound came with the crazy roar, and a car came crashing in the opposite direction It looks as if it is out of control, but at this moment, Xiao Jing doesn''t think! He hurried in the direction, the car body rotated on the road, and there was a ''Bang Bang'' crash Then, the "out of control" car has turned to the side fence Xiao Jing''s breathing became rapid. If he hadn''t passed the technical test, the two cars would have died if they were not scrapped. "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing turned and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen shook the hand that had just pulled the handrail, and his eyes were slightly heavy. "You stay..." at the same time, he got out of the car. The car distance between here and flower dance is about seven or eight minutes. He takes the path... He should arrive in more than ten minutes! Gu Beichen can''t think about anything. The only thing he can do now is... Pray that the bodyguard can delay a little time, at least... Let him arrive! ¡­¡­ Jian Mo arrived at flower dance in a hurry. In the afternoon, it was working time again... There were not many guests in twos and threes. Looking around, Jian Mo didn''t see Shao Shi. "Hello, who is calling, or someone?" A waiter came to ask. Jane Mo swallowed it secretly and asked, "I''m looking for someone..." she paused. "Is there a handsome man and a child here?" The waiter frowned slightly and recognized Jane Mo, "there is no......" he paused. "Since lunch, no man has come with his children!" Jane Mo looked at the waiter slightly stunned, "are you sure?" The waiter nodded blankly at the bottom of his eyes and asked another passing waiter to ask... He confirmed it again. Jane Mo began to feel uneasy in her heart, as if she felt something She hurriedly took out her mobile phone and saw Gu Beichen''s missed call... She hurried back, but she couldn''t dial out! Jane Mo frowned, and the waiter looked at her suspiciously and asked, "well... Do you need help?" "Excuse me..." Jane Mo said anxiously. The waiter gestured to get off the service desk. "There''s one over there!" "Thank you!" Jane Mo hurried to the service desk. There are no Shaoshi and Xiaojie here, and Xiaojie''s phone still can''t be connected... I''m afraid this is Shaoshi''s scam! The phone rang and then cut off. I dialed it several times. It''s all like this! Jane Mo anxiously picked up another one, still so At the moment, Jane Mo has only those plots in the TV series in her mind, what is blocked and what cuts off all connections "Can''t you dial out?" The lobby manager didn''t know when he dialed his cell phone. Why didn''t he listen to it Xiao Yan felt uneasy and kept kicking Jian Mo in the stomach... She comforted her while looking at the door of the coffee shop with complex emotions in her eyes. Are you leaving or waiting here? She is sure that ah Chen is on her way... Now it seems that there will be danger if she goes out or not! Jane Mo secretly blames herself for being too careless because she is nervous. She should discuss with ah Chen first instead of running here alone... But Shaoshi obviously caught her weakness. Just thinking, the voice of the lobby manager came from behind "Who are you? How did you get out of the operation room?" Jian Mo subconsciously looked back... A man with a wicked smile on his upper mouth and a scar on his face. Jian Mo immediately widened his eyes, subconsciously stepped back two steps... Then, almost instinctively controlling his consciousness, turned and wanted to run! Unfortunately, a big belly, where can you run? Awei looked at Jian Mo and motioned to her... As if to say: keep running, it''s fun to chase! Jane Mo stepped back and looked at awei with a wary face Maybe because he threw her into the sea last time, Jane Mo instinctively felt a kind of fear when she saw awei. The lobby manager motioned to get off the service desk, and the waiter looked nervous and dropped his hand "If I were you, I wouldn''t ring the alarm..." awei said with a smile, "because my speed will definitely make your hand unable to press!" As soon as the waiter heard this, his hands suddenly froze... He looked at awei and the lobby manager timidly. The smile on awei''s face was frightening, and the scar on his face made him timid. The lobby manager also mentioned the voice in his heart. This pregnant woman is Gu Beichen''s wife. If something happens here, what can I do? "What do you want?" Jane Mo tried to calm herself, holding her stomach in one hand and her clothes in the other. Awei approached Jane Mo step by step. He looked at her frightened look, and the evil smile at the corners of his mouth grew bigger and bigger It''s a kind of bloodthirsty enjoyment under the panic of others. It''s perverse! The eyes of some guests have looked over and are whispering about what happened here... Because of the distance, they can still feel a little nervous in the atmosphere, but they can''t hear what to say. "What do you want?" Jane Mo gritted her teeth, "or what does Shaoshi want?" Awei continued to smile and didn''t answer, but the man had approached Jane mo. There are smart waiters who want to call the police... Even if there is no signal, the special phone such as the alarm phone is out of control. Unfortunately, it can''t be dialed out. The atmosphere of the whole cafe has been very serious, just when Jane Mo thought about how to delay time The door of the cafe was suddenly pushed open, and a figure rushed in Chapter 689 Almost everyone''s heart suddenly shook at that moment. Some were worried, some were frightened by nervousness, and naturally... Some were filled with hope! Jian Mo looked at the door, and a tall figure crossed... A surprise flashed across her eyes, but when she saw someone coming, she was stunned and forgot to respond. Awei looked back, and the evil smile at the corners of his mouth was always cold and chilling. Chen Xuan breathlessly looked at Jian Mo, then looked at awei and frowned He got the news that Grandpa would be bad for Jian mo. from his own unique channels, he knew that Jian Mo came here "Who are you?" Chen Xuan frowned and wanted to take Jian Mo away. Grandpa couldn''t let people who didn''t trust and didn''t have the ability come over. Although he is not in the Chen family and has nothing to do with things on the road, he still knows the backbone of the Chen family. "Xuan Shao doesn''t know me. I''m normal..." ah weixie said with a smile. "After all... Extraordinary times, different!" Chen Xuan sneered, "really?" He sneered again, "it''s a good time, but no matter what''s different... Today, I won''t let you take Jane Mo!" Jian Mo frowned and looked at Chen Xuan with doubts Although Chen Xuan''s identity is not very clear, he guessed something from ah Chen. What Chen Xuan''s words mean now is that the Chen family are taking her away? So... What does Shao Shi''s phone mean? "Jian mo..." Chen Xuan still looked at awei, but said calmly, "I''ll deal with it here. You go first!" After a pause, "I just called Beichen. He should arrive in two or three minutes!" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she was surprised in her eyes At that time, I heard that something might happen to the milk bag. I was stunned and completely forgot to think! When I came, I knew it was a trap. It was too late to regret "Then you..." Jian Mo looked at Chen Xuan anxiously. Chen Xuan smiled coldly, "hold him, I won''t lose before Beichen comes!" The implication is that he will hold Ah Wei back. Jian Mo just needs to go out and wait for Gu Beichen Jane Mozhe lowered her lower lip and knew that this was not the time to be hypocritical and worried about others... She was here at any time, she might let Chen xuantie tie hands and feet, but also become the most favorable hostage! "Then be careful..." Jane Mo said with clenched teeth and looked at awei with vigilance. If she wants to leave, she must pass him first The manager seemed to see Jian Mo''s hesitation, looked timidly at awei, and hurriedly said, "Miss Jane, the back kitchen leads to the back alley, and you can go from there..." "No!" Chen Xuan immediately objected, "just wait at the door!" Jane Mo''s lips are tighter. There are no people in the back alley. It''s estimated that it''s more dangerous there... Besides, even if ah Chen comes, it must be the front door. Going to the back alley will only take longer. Jane Mo carefully wants to bypass awei. Unfortunately, due to the hollow screen design of the coffee shop, where awei stands, she is in a dangerous position with awei no matter where she goes. Chen Xuan took a step forward and concentrated on waiting for Jian Mo to move. At the same time, he wanted to stop awei at the first time Suddenly Everyone''s nerves suddenly collapsed. When awei was almost parallel to him, people had been bullied close. It was half the time for Chen to stop his instinctive reaction. Jane Mo stopped moving. Everyone who could see what awei had done stared... Because those who could not see from the angle were shocked by the solemn atmosphere. Jane Mo''s breathing began to be messy and heavy. She looked down and looked at the moment when the pocket palm thunder pistol in awei''s hand was against her stomach. She could go crazy in an instant! "Don''t mess around!" Chen Xuan gritted his teeth, but he didn''t dare to act rashly. He can''t guarantee that he can save Jane mo before awei shoots At the moment, his only happiness is that the angle between awei and Jian Mo is covered by the screen. The guests in the coffee shop can only see what happened here at most, but they won''t be frightened by the gun. "Don''t worry..." awei smiled with a creepy smile. "I just want to help you delay... Wait for Gu Beichen to come." Because of the tense atmosphere, no one noticed... When awei shouted the words'' Gu Beichen '', he obviously had a gloomy breath. Jian Mo looked at awei with a pale face. Even though she had experienced the experience of "escaping" with Shi juechi, and even being thrown into the sea by this man... However, she still couldn''t be calm about such a situation. Besides, the gun is against her stomach! There is no regret medicine in this world Jane Mo''s hand was tightly clenched at the moment. Although she was worried about the milk bag, she lost her square inch and came here without telling ah Chen. It was the biggest mistake! However, even if you understand now, it''s too late... If you don''t go back, even if you regret it, it won''t help! Looking at Jian Mo, his face changed like a palette, and his eyes were full of blood thirsty smiles. It seemed that he was happy to see Jian Mo closer to hell step by step. Slightly attached to the body, each action of awei affects everyone''s nervous nerves at the moment "You''re under silence," awei said in Jane Mo''s ear with a smile, in a voice that only two people can hear. "It''s understandable because you''re pregnant." Jane Mo clenched her teeth tightly, because she obviously felt that when she inched, the muzzle of the gun pressed against her stomach Awei continued to smile and said, "you said... What would happen if the one in the school won the silver award?" Jane Mo suddenly dilated her pupils, and her head was buzzing. She wanted to think, but she couldn''t think. Chen Xuan looked at awei tightly and wanted to look for opportunities... Unfortunately, because of the gun against Jian Mo''s stomach, he could only wait for the opportunity... Or for Gu Beichen to come. "Even if the external injection of progesterone hormone," awei''s smile deepened, "who knows... Will it have the same effect as its own?" Don''t panic, calm down... Don''t panic, calm down, calm down Jane Mo kept talking silently like brainwashing herself. At that time, she fell into such a situation because she was worried about Naibai. Now she can''t make the same mistake again. "Then how do you know... It will have different effects?" Jane Mo gritted her teeth. Awei smiled more and more deeply. He got up slowly, looked at Jian Mo with gloomy eyes and said, "I don''t know..." he paused. "So, I have to take him for an experiment!" Jane Mo breathed, almost because awei''s words didn''t come Everyone in sight looked at Jian Mo with worry. She suddenly grasped her hand holding her stomach. Then, her face turned white and full of pain Chapter 690 Awei looked at Jian Mo''s ferocious face with pain, and his smile became colder and colder... Even frozen the heating in the coffee shop to zero. Chen Xuan accidentally worried and locked his sword eyebrow. His hand suddenly clenched into a fist. He heard the dislocation of the bone joints The atmosphere was tense again, and a waiter whispered timidly, "she... She doesn''t seem to be feeling well." Someone''s heart is broken. Who can be comfortable with the situation at the moment? Besides, Jane Mo at the top of the danger chain? Chen Xuan began to worry. At this moment, he finally understood why the scar man just said to help them delay time At this moment, it is reasonable to say that Beichen should be here... But, no! That means... Someone outside has dragged Beichen? In a sudden change of mind, Chen Xuan suddenly saw awei''s invisible frown... He seized the opportunity and stepped forward to awei with a sharp kick. Out of the sense of danger instinct, awei sidled away from Chen Xuan''s foot At the right time, Jane Mo almost instinctively stepped aside and walked outside the coffee shop with her uncomfortable body. "Jane..." Chen Xuan wanted to shout Jian Mo, but the words came out, and awei''s fierce fist had attacked him. Later, he was swallowed back... Chen Xuanyu Guang had seen Jian Mo open the door of the coffee shop. "Jane Mo, no... Oh!" Awei''s attack was so fierce that... Chen xuangen couldn''t speak, and was punched in the face because he was worried about Jian mo. The coffee shop finally found the problems one by one Jane Mo is not in the mood to take care of those people who run out of the coffee shop in fear. She just looks around in a hurry and loses the focus She leaned against the wall and had some colic in her stomach because of the pain, but in a moment, her forehead overflowed with a fine cold sweat. Cars pass by one by one. With the passage of time, Jane Mo is afraid to lose her square inch again She dared not leave casually, fearing that it would be the next trap. However, stay where you are, and Gu Beichen doesn''t come again Just when Jane Mo didn''t know what to do and her stomach hurt so much that she couldn''t stand, a traffic accident was broadcasting on the big screen of the mall across the road Jian Mo only glanced at Yu Guang... But at this glance, she recognized that the car in the accident was Gu Beichen''s! Breathing, as if missing a beat at that moment. Judging from the serial car accidents at the scene, the accident was not small... Even the cries at the scene were noisy. Jane Mo finally realized the feeling of being empty in an instant. She didn''t know how to do it. She just looked at the big screen Because I was in a hurry to find him, the speed was too fast, so there were serial accidents Such terrible thoughts grow and often spare in Jianmo''s body like vines. Jianmo doesn''t know whether people will think wildly when they are in danger. It''s just that she can''t calm down now, even... Because of the passage of time, she can''t calm down at all! ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen wiped the blood on the corner of his mouth, and the eagle''s eyes had overflowed cold Jue''s thirst for blood. He looked at several people who blocked themselves in the alley, and his whole body gave off a breath of horror Because he took a shortcut, he took the back lane of flower dance... As long as he went out, he only needed to run a few steps to get to flower dance. But just a few steps away, he couldn''t get there. "Chen Shao, you don''t have to procrastinate..." the leader dumped the hand just broken by Gu Beichen, scolded secretly, and almost broke, "in fact, you and I know very well that everyone is procrastinating." Gu Beichen is waiting for someone to come, and they are waiting for someone to be taken away "Shiyan doesn''t want to take so many things away." Shiyan doesn''t need to do so much...... " He knows Shi Shaoqin well. If Shi Shaoqin really thinks about Mo''er, why should he be so complicated for such a conceited person? The first person is laughing, just a cold smile without temperature... In such a cool and dark back alley, it seems to be extravasating. "Chen Shao, you should know..." the leader said faintly, "we just obey orders and never ask why!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed gradually, and his cold face was filled with a faint haze "Get out of the way!" Gu Beichen seemed to have guessed something in his heart. Chen Xuan just called him, meaning that the Chen family is going to fight But at the moment, he met the ink palace man who intercepted him here... What does that mean? Shi Shaoqin wanted to take Mo''er away, but he had to use someone else''s hand! "Just said..." the leader smiled. "Chen Shao can pass, let''s climb down!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed into a gap. He withdrew his suit coat, untied the cuffs of his shirt... And pulled it to the elbow. There is no unnecessary nonsense. At the moment, the only thing he can do is to put them down While striving for the fastest time, we can only pray that Chen Xuan can delay. ¡­¡­ The Fengyue road in Los Angeles is dignified, with a series of car accidents and the control of all parties, as if the whole area was shrouded in a layer of haze. At the same time, in the Mo Tong castle, the atmosphere was really strange and cold. The international top hacker J''s fingers are as flexible as machinery, floating fast on the keyboard. In the room, there was a soft sound of tapping the keyboard. I saw a string of characters across the DOS interface The sound of "Di" suddenly came, and J''s eyes lit up, "OK! Done..." he turned and looked at Shi Shaoqin standing in front of the window, "it has been connected to Spencer''s monitoring system." Shi Shaoqin turned slowly while J said something. He first looked at the pure face smiling like a child, and then his eyes became deep. J motioned, pressed the Enter key, and suddenly... Spencer''s monitoring screen has been connected to the video device. Shi Shaoqin looked away from the picture and looked at it with burning eyes After a few seconds, he frowned slightly, "how old is the child? Where is the picture you cut now?" J looked, then grinned, "it seems to be the junior high school department..." paused, his fingers flipped on the keyboard, and the picture has cut into the kindergarten part. Spencer noble school is very famous in Los Angeles, and even has branches in several first tier cities across the country It''s expensive here. It''s also very high-end in terms of natural... Facilities and safety. "Go where there are many people..." Shi Shaoqin said coldly. J after responding to the sound, export the video signal from the monitoring density. After turning a few places, finally... Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were in a classroom taking etiquette courses. "Stop!" Shi Shaoqin spoke indifferently. Almost at the same time, the picture stops Shi Shaoqin went to the video camera and his eyes fell on Jian Jie''s face. A deep smile came out of his good-looking mouth. "He and Chen look like each other!" Chapter 691 "That''s all for today''s class," the teacher said to the children with a smile. "Wait, it''s afternoon tea time. We should review the etiquette we just learned!" "Yes, sir!" In the picture, the children''s polite and childish voices came Shi Shaoqin''s sight suddenly softened, but it was only a moment. He didn''t find it fast. "Qin Shao, which one?" J removed a lollipop and put it into his mouth. He asked with some unclear sobs. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes never left Jian Jie, "the fourth in the third row..." ¡°OK£¡¡± J answered, tapped his finger on the keyboard several times, wrote a program on the DOS interface, and pressed enter Sure enough, with the movement of Jian Jie, the monitoring within his range will catch him at the first time and follow him. The teacher took the students to the restaurant for afternoon tea. The restaurant staff had already prepared the food. "Now," the teacher began to group with a smile, "boys and girls work in groups, and then start the content they just learned..." Jane Jie naturally and one by one group. Since the first came, the students in the class found that Jane Jie was about to be occupied by her alone It''s a pity that those little girls can only complain and get angry under the "pornographic power" one by one. Jane Jie grew up in the UK. It can be said that gentleman etiquette is a small contact... Plus people are smart, and they will be cute and obedient to the people around them at a specific time. Naturally, his every action and etiquette steps are very pleasing to the eye. One by one, there was a proud smile on his small face. He saw the chocolate cake put by Jane Jay in front of her and looked at his Napoleon Cake... Tooted his mouth. "What''s the matter?" Jane Jie put the milk tea in front of each other. "I want Napoleon Cake, too!" One by one greedily looked at the cake in front of Jane Jie. "You''ll get fat if you eat two..." said Jane Jie, trying to change the and one by one in front of him. One by one immediately grabbed his chocolate cake, "don''t take mine!" Then he said overbearing, "but I want yours." Jane Jie blinked. "I can''t hold you when I''m fat..." "..." one by one, his small pink mouth opened, his eyes were full of reluctance, looked at Jane Jie''s cake, and then drooped his small shoulders, "then... I''d better eat my own!" Jian Jie smiled and nodded, but didn''t let them achieve their wishes one by one. Shi Shaoqin just looked at Jian Jie and 11, or... Kept looking at Jian Jie. "He''s smart, isn''t he?" Shi Shaoqin spoke quietly. "How are you..." J glanced. "If the other side''s eyes are so weak, he can''t help but smile," he said "Do you want him?" J took the lollipop out of his mouth and asked. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes became deep and bottomless, and the smile at the corners of his mouth became treacherous He didn''t answer J''s question, but his eyes narrowed slightly. At the right time, a restaurant staff took a Thermos Pot to add drinks to the children. Unlike other children who like to drink all kinds of milk tea or fruit juice, Jane Jie does drink boiled water. "Xiao Jie, do you need any more water?" The staff asked with a smile. Jian Jie also smiled and pushed the water cup over, "thank you!" The staff shook his head with a smile, took the water cup and poured it... Everything was as usual, but when he looked down and saw the water in the kettle pouring into the water cup, a strange light crossed his eyes. Shi Shaoqin looked deeper now and said, "check this man..." J tilted his mouth, held the lollipop in his mouth, began to take a screenshot of the man''s appearance, cut into the population database and began to investigate At the same time, Jane Mo soaked her clothes with cold, but she didn''t feel the cold when the cold wind blew. Obviously, it''s only a few minutes'' waiting, but it''s been as long as a century The fight in the coffee shop continued. A waiter tried to call the police, but only when he rang the alarm did he know that the line was broken. There were no signals from mobile phones and landlines. It seemed that they could only watch Chen Xuan and were completely clamped down by awei. Jian Mo clenched her teeth and looked at the situation in the coffee shop... Looking around, she couldn''t judge the risk factor of leaving and staying at the moment, but she couldn''t wait like this and couldn''t know Gu Beichen''s situation. Take out your cell phone. There''s no signal! Jian Mo was so angry that she wanted to throw away her mobile phone Gritting her teeth, Jane Mo tried to stand up. Even if it hurt, her stomach would be twisted Xiao Yan, you have to work hard! Mom and dad are working hard, and you have to work hard yourself... You know? Jane Mo thought secretly. She looked across the road and was a car away from the "quiet" on the side of the coffee shop. There is no one passing by here... Jane Mo doesn''t expect it. After all, no matter what the Chen family or Shaoshi want to do to her, they will not give her a chance to ask for help Even if the car across the road is blocked at the moment, it may be that the other party is acting... If she walks over, she will be hit! Jane Mo has been completely disordered. She is at a loss when she is surrounded by danger... This situation is not something she can deal with. Jane morhu''s lips, just common sense walking to the roadside Maybe you can receive the signal a little away from flower dance! Suddenly The phone rang! Jane Mo widened her eyes and hurriedly picked up her mobile phone to see the position of the signal... There was a grid on the display. She hurried to call Gu Beichen, but the mobile phone screen was automatically cut into a picture At a glance, Jian Mo saw that in the picture, the school staff handed a glass of boiled water to Jian Jie... When Jian Jie took it, the man''s mouth overflowed uncontrollably with a treacherous smile. "You said... What would happen if the one in the school got silver?" Awei''s words exploded in Jian Mo''s mind. She watched Jian Jie drink with the glass of water. She completely forgot the environment and shouted, "milk bag, water can''t drink..." With a bang, a heavy object fell to the ground in the cafe. At the right time, a business car stopped at the roadside... Someone opened the door and got off quickly. When Jian Mo looked at the picture in the mobile phone signal video, he was pulled by two people, one left and one right "Well..." Jane Mo wants to break free, but even if she is not pregnant, she can''t break free from two strong men, not to mention having a big stomach now? ''crash'' across, the door was closed at the same time, the car started to leave Almost at the same time, Gu Beichen, with blood stains on his body, walked into the front hall from the flower dance operation hall and looked at Chen Xuan, who was beaten to the ground by awei, "where''s Mo''er?" Chapter 692 Before Chen Xuan could speak, the manager hurriedly said, "Miss Jane is waiting for you at the door..." As soon as Gu Beichen heard this, he even couldn''t care about Chen Xuan on the ground, so he wanted to run out But when the talent arrived at the door, a figure flashed past and stopped him! "The man has been taken away..." awei picked up his eyebrows and smiled. "It''s no use looking for him now." "Get out of the way!" Gu Beichen''s eyes are congested. "You know... I''m actually waiting for you!" Awei smiled and said, "this knife, I said, I''ll come back to you sooner or later..." Gu Beichen glanced lightly at the scar mark on awei''s face. His sight sank and his voice became cold, "awei, you couldn''t beat me at first... Now, you think it''s ok?" "How about... Try?" Awei raised his eyebrows and smiled coldly at the corners of his mouth. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is already dark and bottomless, "Shi Shaoqin... What do you want?" Just to hold him down? Gu Beichen really can''t figure out why Shi Shaoqin''s prey, who dares to move? If the Chen family takes Mo''er away, he is not the most worried... Because they dare not touch it. Smart people know whether they are holding a hot potato in their hand... They are afraid. If they change hands, more things will happen. Awei looked at Gu Beichen, and a touch of admiration crossed his eyes. "If you didn''t go at the beginning," he paused slightly. He didn''t know whether it was a pity or how he felt, "you would be my best follower... What a pity!" "What a pity?" Gu Beichen sniffed coldly, "it''s a pity. You''d better leave it to yourself!" Without giving awei a chance to respond, Gu Beichen has hit his face At the right time, Chen Xuan also got up from the ground, a little embarrassed. However, even so, his sight fell on Gu Beichen''s struggle with awei for the first time. The so-called "laymen watch the excitement and experts watch the doorway" probably means the moment. In addition to Chen Xuan, the manager and waiter of the coffee shop have only one idea. These two people can really fight Chen Xuan knows that both Gu Beichen and the scar man are dead... But they are too familiar with each other''s routine, and no one can take advantage of it. "Unexpectedly, there is no hand-made student to count money in the ups and downs business war these years!" Awei sneered. "That only shows that even if you practice again, you can''t beat me!" Gu Beichen''s voice was calm. "You have to hurry up..." "..." awei was going to annoy Gu Beichen, but he didn''t expect to be annoyed by him. Suddenly, the speed of hands and feet accelerated. The sound of "bang bang" was heard constantly, and the waiters felt it one by one. They felt that those fists and feet had fallen on themselves At the same time, they murmured one by one. Who could have thought that the emperor''s young president was not only fierce in the market, but also so fierce? Chen Xuan pulled a high stool to sit down, took a piece of meal paper and wiped the corners of his mouth... His muscles twitched uncontrollably because of pain. After watching for more than a minute, Chen Xuan saw that awei made it clear that he would not let go of Gu Beichen. He simply looked at the manager and said, "give me a notebook." The manager was stunned at first, and then motioned the waiter to get it, "there is no signal on the mobile phone, I''m afraid there is no wireless..." Chen Xuan''s face was heavy, but he didn''t say anything. The notebook was quickly taken over and Chen Xuan opened it. Sure enough... I couldn''t connect to the wireless network. He calmly entered the DOS interface, and his slender fingers drifted quickly on the keyboard... When a string of strings was crossed, the manager''s eyes widened. The manager looked at Gu Beichen, who was playing hard, and then looked at Chen Xuan, who was measuring the computer. He secretly thought: no wonder he can only be a small manager of a coffee shop, mainly because he has too few skills. ¡­¡­ "You''d better not struggle..." the man walking in the co pilot''s position slowly opened his mouth in the business car. "We won''t do anything to you, but if the consequences are caused by your struggle, you have to bear it yourself." Jane Mo bit her teeth and stared at the back of the head of the man in front. "What do you want?" The man ''ha ha'' smiled and didn''t turn his head. "It''s not good. It''s just asking you to be a guest." "What do you want?" Jane moqiang asked calmly, "money?" "We really want money," the man slowly turned to Jian Mo, "but... Not from Gu Beichen!" "What do you mean?" Jane Mo looked at the man''s indifferent smile, pulled her arm and broke away from the person who suppressed her, "let me go, you make an offer!" She doesn''t know how much the emperor''s assets are. Now, whether it''s herself or ah Chen, she has only one idea, the safety of her and her children The man smiled and said, "yes, not from Gu Beichen..." he sat right, "don''t worry, we won''t hurt you and your baby, but also treat you well." Jane morhu pulled down the corner of her mouth, gritted her teeth and asked, "do you want to take money with Shaoshi?" "Shao Shi?" The man was stunned, then pondered the name in his heart, and couldn''t help laughing, "I thought he wanted to deal with Gu Beichen. It turned out... He really wanted you?" The man seemed to whisper, but the voice was enough for Jane Mo to hear Jane Mo frowned at the moment, "deal with ah Chen?" The man looked back at Jian Mo, "you''re smart, but... Don''t expect to talk from me." After a pause, "if you have anything to ask, ask the Lord." "Milk..." Jane Mo paused and saw the man looking at her suspiciously, but she didn''t speak. If there is something wrong with Xiaojie''s water, and this person wants to use her to make a deal with Shaoshi... It''s likely that they don''t know the existence of milk bags. Now if she asked, wouldn''t it be more dangerous. Jian Mo leaned weakly on the seat, because she was worried that she confused her square inches, resulting in such a situation All the previous efforts were in vain, which made ah Chen fall into a passive position. Jane Mo closed her eyes because she was sad In this world, there is no regret medicine. The only thing you can eat is the consequences of your actions. Jane Mo''s hand never left her stomach. After the colic at that time, it''s much better now Xiao Yan, I''m sorry... It''s your mother who put you in trouble and your father who put you in a passive position. You and your brother will be all right. You must "The doctor is ready," the man seemed to see Jian Mo''s worry. "The Chen family won''t let anything happen to you and your child until they achieve their goal." Jane Mo opened her eyes and looked at the man. She didn''t speak, but the corners of her mouth were tight togethe Chapter 693 Spencer¡£ The children in the kindergarten are enjoying the afternoon tea, because they have just finished the etiquette class, and everyone is dining with gentlemen and ladies. The only one who is not a lady is obviously the object that all girls envy, envy, hate and hate. Jane Jie handed the meal paper to one by one, "wipe!" "Yes!" One by one, I took it and began to wipe it. According to what he Yining said now, one by one is ancient and strange, and can be honest in front of Jian Jie Shi Shaoqin and j are still watching the video, watching the two children eat the cake from the beginning to the end... If you tell others, I''m afraid no one will believe it. "Qin Shao," asked J. gulping while eating a lollipop, "are you going to do something to him?" "No plan!" Shi Shaoqin answered lightly. J turned his eyes in disbelief, "I don''t believe..." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were slightly deep. He looked back and wrote "don''t believe" expression J on his face. He took back his eyes and said, "a Jane Mo and the child in her belly can control Chen. I don''t need to do more..." J adjusted his comfortable posture and watched Jane Jie continue to drink his water. "If people force too hard, it will only backfire." Shi Shaoqin''s pretty mouth overflowed with a strange smile, "besides... I don''t want juechi to know the existence of Jian Jie for the time being." "The man who added the drink just now is not your man?" J was curious, and his words showed a trace of childishness under arrogance. "If not, why did you ask me to intercept this video to Jian Mo?" J is smart. At the age of 13, he has become the world''s top hacker, but now he is only a 17-year-old boy. Many things are only superficial. "People''s hearts are the most complex, but also the purest..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice is full of unspeakable emotions, which are so complex that they change in an instant. J took out a little lollipop left in his mouth, narrowed his eyes, and then accurately threw the remaining lollipop into the trash can, "do you want to say that you just use Jane Mo''s worry about Jane Jie to automatically expand the danger?" "Before, she herself was drunk because silence dissolved in water..." Shi Shaoqin explained patiently. "My text messages and phone calls have caused her psychological worry... Awei''s appearance has expanded her subconscious fear." "Then, this video, coupled with the man''s inexplicable smile..." J sat up straight and looked excited, "so she doesn''t need to think and think, and the human body will automatically transmit all the dangerous information to the brain, and then expand!" "Yes!" Shi Shaoqin answered casually. J''s face suddenly showed curiosity, "why didn''t you give him silence directly when you found Jane Jie? I''m not sure. You can better shackle Jane mo." "Imperfect things," Shi Shaoqin said quietly, and his sight became deep and bottomless. "How can I use them?" "There are too many imperfect things in the world..." J skimmed. Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but his eyes were cold and deep J didn''t finish the imperfect things. Looking at Jane Jie, he asked curiously, "but why does the person who poured the drink smile?" Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly and slowly opened his mouth: "it won''t be the person who wants to deal with Jian Jie..." Chen''s defense inside and outside Spencer will be very strong. Even if he wants to sneak into people, I''m afraid it will take some twists and turns. "That''s really annoying..." J was saying, when he saw the video camera, the person who whirled to pour the drink twitched and suddenly fell to the ground. Because of his sudden fall to the ground, the children panicked and even screamed timidly and scared. One by one face of ignorance, do not know what happened. Jian Jie looked at the cart across his row of people without blinking... Because his sight was blocked, he couldn''t see the person at the bottom. Teachers and security guards have poured in, some to appease and evacuate children, and some to make calls. J was curious. Without waiting for Shi Shaoqin to speak, he cut the picture to the surveillance of the fallen man I saw him twitching all over and rolling his eyes, but the corners of his mouth were still smiling. "I''ll pull," J shook all over. "I think this smile is a little creepy?" "What disease should he have caused..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was a touch of coldness. "It''s really the time to get sick." ¡­¡­ With a bang, Gu Beichen kicked awei in the stomach. He hit the wall heavily and curled up. At the right time, Xiao Jing breathlessly opened the door and ran in. "Chen Shao, didn''t intercept." Xiao Jing''s face was dignified. "The land and air have been blocked." As soon as Chen Xuan heard this, he already frowned, looked around, and said in a dignified voice, "let''s go first..." Gu Beichen glanced at awei and knew that this was not the time to worry. Shi Shaoqin''s purpose is to hold him back and let the Chen family take Mo''er away... Judging from Chen Xuan''s face, he has got the answer. Xiao Jing looks at the coffee shop that can''t be opened. While Gu Beichen and Chen Xuan go out, they go to the service desk and take out a check After writing down the numbers, Xiao Jing pulled down the check and handed it to the manager, "it''s a private house for maintenance these days..." paused, "in addition, send a copy of the monitoring to the emperor." "OK!" The manager took the check. "Did it start when Miss Jane came in?" "Yes!" Xiao Jing answered and turned away. Just, when I opened the door, I looked at awei At that glance, there was a warning. After all, it''s about Shi Shaoqin and Chen Shao. There are rules on the road... No one wants to involve the cafe here. Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing left in Chen Xuan''s car. None of them spoke, and their breath was dignified. At an intersection waiting for traffic lights, Chen Xuan couldn''t hold back, "I didn''t think about what my brother said to me when I was worried about Jinxi..." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but looked out of the window. His prevention has never been in place If she could be more careful, Mo''er wouldn''t be in such danger. Gu Beichen closed his eyes. When his temples moved slightly, his hands were already clenched. Xiao Jing blamed himself. Knowing that Shi Shaoqin would be tempted, he should arrange more bodyguards... But what if there were more arrangements? Xiao Jing''s face became more dignified with a touch of self mockery from the corner of his mouth. Chen Xuan looked at the people in the back seat from the rearview mirror and started the car when the green light was on "What''s your relationship with Beiqin?" asked Shiqin Gu Beichen didn''t answer, and Chen Xuan didn''t expect him to answer. He just asked, "if he forced the Chen family to this point, just for a simple Mo, why didn''t he do it himself? Wouldn''t it be easier?" Chen Xuan''s problem is exactly what Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing can''t figure out at the moment Their prevention is mainly on Shi Shaoqin''s side, but today it''s just to hold them down! Chapter 694 What happened to flower dance seemed to be an illusion. Except for the parties, no one knows that this elegant place has just experienced a bloody incident. The people who used to drink afternoon tea at several tables have been lured and threatened before they have time to play up. Naturally, no one will dislike the nonsense of too comfortable life. "Go to devil''s kiss." Gu Beichen was a little tired, lying back on his seat, his face as cold as a carving, tight. Xiao Jing''s face was dignified. He looked at Chen Xuan and didn''t speak. When it comes to devil''s kiss, Xiao Nan and Xiao Huan are not there. Fortunately, Xiao Qiang and Xiao Yu are both there. "Erjing, what are you doing now..." Xiao Qiang was trying to make fun of him, when he saw Gu Beichen and Chen Xuan''s embarrassed appearance, and the corners of his mouth twitched, "what''s the matter with these two people?" He rubbed against Xiao Jing and asked in a low voice. "Xiao Wu, find two sets of clean clothes..." Xiao Jing didn''t answer Xiao Qiang, but ordered, "cockroach, I want to see the road condition monitoring at the gate of flower dance on Fengyue road." Xiao Qiang was very dissatisfied with Xiao Jing calling him "cockroach", but he also knew that something must have happened. Without saying more, he began to work Soon, the road conditions at the gate of flower dance were adjusted. Xiao Jing locked a business car while Gu Beichen and Chen xuanxiu repaired it. Chen Xuan took the ointment and smeared it on the corners of his mouth, while he looked at the route of the business car until it disappeared "I can''t keep up!" Chen Xuan''s face was more dignified. Gu Beichen looked very calm, but everyone knew that he was holding back his uncontrollable anger. "Chen Zhaobai came by himself?" Gu Beichen''s voice was cold to the critical point. Although he was asking, it was obvious that he was sure. Chen Xuan looked at Gu Beichen and said with a heavy face, "it seems... It should be." This route also has the ability to avoid the dead corner of road control. The Chen family, he knows, only big brother. "The Chen family can really..." Gu Beichen glanced at Chen Xuan and said coldly. The man had turned to another computer and asked in due time, "where is the Dragon boss now?" "Brother Xiao has returned to England." Xiao Yu played with the magic cube in his hand, "something''s wrong." His words were easy to be concise and comprehensive. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and said nothing more. He just entered the exclusive system of the Dragon Owl "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing''s face was dignified. Gu Beichen didn''t change his face. "Isn''t this the result Shi Shaoqin wants?" Xiao Jing clenched his teeth and clenched his hands in an instant Because of his anger, the almost dark smell that had faded from him filled up in an instant. Hearing the name "Shi Shaoqin", Xiao Qiang and Xiao Yu looked at each other and heard Xiao Yu say, "Chen Shao, brother Xiao, if it''s because of Shi Shaoqin... Let you think clearly." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but his slender fingers were away from the upper reaches of the keyboard... His action was already his answer. He is not afraid to go to hell, for Mo''er... He has nothing to be afraid of! Besides, Shi Shaoqin is ready to throw Mo''er into hell. What else does he have to consider? With him, at least she won''t be afraid... Isn''t she? ¡­¡­ At the beginning of pregnancy, Jian Mo and Shi juechi experienced a sea, land and air escape... Unexpectedly, they experienced another one when they were about to give birth. However, last time she didn''t know the existence of Xiao Yan... This time, because of Xiao Yan, she will only be stronger to face her mistakes. Because she believed... That Gu Beichen would stand with her. "I''ll be there in half an hour..." Chen Zhaobai said faintly, "don''t worry, I''m a good gynecologist." Jane didn''t feel the danger from the man, but she didn''t feel it at all. "I won''t eat anything, and I won''t accept injections..." Jane Mo looked at the man who came in with milk and food, and said firmly. Chen Zhaobai said faintly, "whatever you want!" Jane Mo frowned, turned her face aside and stopped talking. Chen Zhaobai didn''t intend to say anything to Jian Mo, but poured himself a glass of water, drank it and walked to the window. The night has darkened badly. Maybe he feels the heaviness. Even the moon and stars hide behind the scenes and can''t bear to feel the joys and sorrows of the world. The quiet space was a little depressed until the doctor came "Trouble!" Chen Zhaobai nodded politely to the doctor. The doctor didn''t say much, so he went to Jane Mo''s side... While asking about her condition, he gave her a simple examination. "Pregnant women''s emotional tension will cause the fetus to follow uneasy, and your condition at that time is normal..." the doctor said after the examination. "However, you should adjust your state of mind. Although now the month is old, it should not be affected too much, but being a mother is always good for the child." Jane nodded. "Thank you, doctor." "You''re welcome..." the doctor smiled and began to pack up. "However, it''s hard to follow him... It''s easy to be frightened." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and looked at Chen Zhaobai. "You misunderstood. I have nothing to do with him." The doctor was stunned, then leaned over and looked at Chen Zhaobai, "let me hurry so quickly, I thought..." she didn''t continue to say, but looked at Jian Mo in some embarrassment. Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and shook her head slightly. The doctor didn''t say anything more, just got up, said hello to Chen Zhaobai, and was sent away After the doctor left, the room fell silent again. Xiao Yan doesn''t matter. For Jian Mo, it''s the best news at the moment However, without the news of Jane Jie''s nothing and Gu Beichen, her hanging heart can''t fall. The "buzzing" vibration of the mobile phone came. Jian Mo looked at Chen Zhaobai and saw him answer the phone and walk to the window again "I''ll set out later..." Chen Zhaobai replied, "I''ve made an appointment in Singapore... OK! I see..." Jian Mo kept looking at Chen Zhaobai. While he hung up, he asked, "are you taking me to Singapore? Who have you made an appointment with?" Chen Zhaobai turned and looked at Jian Mo, "so many problems..." he frowned slightly. "When you arrive, you will naturally know." Jane Mo was angry, but there was no way... She could only be silent. Chen Zhaobai took Jian Mo to the wharf in the moonlight. Jian Mo didn''t even know where the wharf was It''s not a comfortable cruise or yacht... It''s a ship carrying goods. Fortunately, the smell is fresh. When we arrived in Singapore, it was already the local morning Compared with the cold winter in Los Angeles, it''s obviously warm and comfortable here... If Jane Mo is in the mood right now. Chen Zhaobai''s cell phone rang again. After he picked it up and listened for a while, he heard him say, "Jane Mo has brought it..." Chapter 695 Jian Mo looked at Chen Zhaobai, listened to him on the phone, and stroked his hand consciously or unconsciously on his stomach. "OK, let''s go now..." Chen Zhaobai answered after the other party said something. He glanced at Jane and said, "see you later!" Jane Mo didn''t speak, but was silent She has no ability to resist now. She can only keep herself calm under unknown circumstances. There was a business car waiting outside the airport. A man wearing a floral shirt, beach pants and big sunglasses came over with a smile when he saw Chen Zhaobai. "Brother Zhao." The man took off his sunglasses and looked at the calm Jane foam on his face. "Tut tut!" he said, "this is Gu Beichen''s wife? It''s very beautiful... No wonder Gu Beichen likes it very much!" "Shapi!" Chen Zhaobai frowned slightly and shouted coldly. Shapi ''hey hey'', but also polite, "Hello, I''m Shapi... Don''t mind. When a man looks at a woman, he must look at his face first." Jane Mo was indifferent and ignored Shapi''s ridicule. Shapi shrugged and looked at Chen Zhaobai. "Brother Zhao, it has been arranged over there. Will you be there now?" "Yes." Chen Zhaobai answered and looked at Jian mo. Jian Mo was also "good", unwilling to do so, but she took the lead in walking to the business car Along the way, looking at this clean place known as the "sky garden", Jane Mo was not in the mood to appreciate it. She is worried about Jian Jie and Gu Beichen... These two most important people in her life are weighing heavily on her heart at the moment. "Brother Zhao, do you want to prepare some clothes?" Shapi turned from the co pilot and asked the man in the back seat. It''s winter in Los Angeles. Although Jane Mo is anxious to come out from the emperor, she is also warm But now the weather in Singapore is more than 20 degrees. Obviously... Jane Mo''s clothes are a little hot. "Yes." Chen Zhaobai looked at Jian Mo and answered. He couldn''t help admiring the woman. In addition to the initial panic, she has been relatively calm so far... Although, he promised, she is not calm inside. The car drove for more than two hours before stopping at the door of a very high-end hotel Jian Mo looked at the sign at the door. It was not that there were many Chinese in her imagination, so she used Chinese, but the font she couldn''t understand. "It''s already a big horse..." Chen Zhaobai seemed to see Jian Mo''s doubts and explained faintly. Jian Mo frowned and looked at Chen Zhaobai... However, such doubts were soon put away. Why doesn''t this man fly directly to Malaysia, but come back to Singapore?! Chen Zhaobai put a faint smile on the corner of his mouth and led him to the hotel... He saw the doubt about Jian Mo, but he didn''t explain it to her again. Shapi went to the front desk to get the check-in card and the presidential suite. It''s convenient to see Jane Mo, but it won''t let her have no private space. For kidnapping... Jane Mo felt that she was probably the best kidnapped treatment. "These things are prepared by the hotel," Chen Zhaobai personally took some food to Jian Mo, "you can not eat. There is no problem for the human body not to eat or drink for three days... I just don''t know if the little thing in your stomach can endure." Jian Mo suddenly stared at Chen Zhaobai and was dissatisfied with his saying that Xiao Yan was a "little thing". Chen Zhaobai didn''t mind either. He just said, "I''m afraid the person I''m waiting for will be in the afternoon or in the evening..." he put down the food, "why don''t I go out with you?" "Aren''t you afraid I''ll run away?" Jane froth cold hiss. Chen Zhaobai smiled. "Since I can make such a request, of course I won''t be afraid of you running away..." after a pause, he opened the fridge and took a bottle of water out to drink. "Walk with you and eat what you want... If you choose at random, you won''t worry that we will do things in the food." Jane has been tossing her lips for more than ten hours. She is really hungry Mainly, Xiao Yan can''t stand it if he doesn''t eat or drink. "Actually, what are you worried about?" Chen Zhaobai looked at Jian Mo with a smile. "If I want to do something, I don''t need so much trouble. It''s easier to do it directly." Jane Mo was silent, but she looked at Chen Zhaobai with a faint anger in her eyes. "Let''s go..." Chen Zhaobai took his room card, looked at Jian Mo''s clothes, took his mobile phone and called Shapi. "Where''s the clothes?" "I''ve reached the door..." said Shapi, and the door bell rang in time. Chen Zhaobai opened the door and took the handbag to Jian Mo, "change it. I''ll wait outside." Jane Mo took it and went to the bedroom She didn''t change, but first looked around the house, and finally surprised her eyes on the plane at the head of the bed Jane Mo hurried over and first looked at the sign. Although it was in Malay, it was good that there was an English version. According to the prompt, she picked up the phone and began to dial the international phone... Every time she dialed a number, her heart lifted a point. But when a string of voices came from the phone that she didn''t understand, Jane Mo frowned. The other party seemed to feel that the caller didn''t understand Malay, so he changed to English and said, "this is the hotel front desk. Can I help you?" "Hello," said Jane Mo hurriedly in English, "can I make an international call from the phone in the room?" "Sorry, your room has stopped all outreach except the front desk service..." Jane Mo immediately drooped her shoulders. She was so naive. They brought her here and clearly told her that she had entered Malaysia. How could she have the opportunity to contact ah Chen? "Hello, are you still listening?" The voice of the front desk came again, "what else can I do for you?" "No, thanks!" Jane Mo hung up the phone and looked powerlessly at the handbag. The astringency of the corners of her mouth turned into a self mocking smile. ¡­¡­ "Still not..." Chen Xuan drew on the paper with a pen. "The route is not suitable." Gu Beichen stood in front of the window with his hands in his pockets. Looking at the gloomy weather, he didn''t speak. While Chen Yu is calculating Chen Zhaobai''s possible route, Xiao Jing leads others to find clues However, for Chen Zhaobai, who is famous for taking detours on the road, leaving his whereabouts for you to find out, it could not have been possible at that time. There is a specialty in art! How many people hate Chen Zhaobai''s ability, but envy him?! "It''s almost noon..." Gu Beichen opened his thin lips and opened his mouth. Chen Yu threw away his pen angrily. "Shit, this is the rhythm of killing people!" Gu Beichen didn''t answer. He was almost sure that the ultimate goal was Shi Shaoqin... But why? "Chen Zhaobai won''t take Mo''er too far away," Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, "but he won''t be in China..." "You mean..." Chen Yu''s pupils dilated and didn''t say anything. He hurried out the map and was ready to find Chen Zhaobai''s departure route again. Chapter 696 Strange street, strange bad environment, strange people All things, except Xiao Yan''s company, Jian Mo was strange to resist. Her stomach was empty. Xiao Yan didn''t know whether she was afraid of strangers or something. She kept kicking Jian Mo''s stomach. Jian Mo stroked her hand and tried to comfort Xiao Yan... Fortunately, the little guy didn''t want his mother to worry too much, so he calmed down in a moment. Chen Zhaobai accompanied Jian Mo on the street. He didn''t have any suggestions, so he asked Jian Mo to choose where to eat. Jane Mo didn''t have a specific route. She turned around when she saw the road... Finally, she stopped when she saw a Chinese restaurant. "Chinese food?" Chen Zhaobai asked. Jane Mo glanced at him and turned to walk there... Instead of entering a Chinese restaurant, she went to a fruit shop. Chen Zhaobai stood at the door and looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. He picked several kinds of fruits there, which are suitable for pregnant women. He couldn''t help laughing at the corners of his mouth "Just eat fruit?" Jane Mo replied indifferently, "anyway, there is someone who will take over later. What do I eat here? Is it meaningful?" "Women are smart and sometimes give men a headache." Chen Zhaobai rubbed his eyebrows. Jian Mo glanced at Chen Zhaobai and saw that he took out the money and took the initiative to carry the fruit. Back to the hotel, Jane Mo has been very silent and didn''t leave her hands. She went to wash the fruit herself... Silently began to eat. The fruits here are obviously much sweeter than those in China. However, Jane Mo has no taste in her mouth and feels a little astringent when eating ¡­¡­ Shi juechi can barely get up and move properly in a wheelchair Carney pushed him to find Shi Shaoqin. He saw Shi Shaoqin coming out of the room with one hand and a pocket, followed by Mosen. "Are you going out?" Shi juechi asked with a slight frown. Shi Shaoqin looked at Shi Jue Chi with a slight droop of vision and indifference. "There''s a batch of goods coming out of Malaysia..." he said faintly, "I need to go there." "When do you need to go there in person?" Shi juechi''s eyes moved up and looked at Shang Shi Shaoqin. "Because the other party has a strong condition... I want it!" Shi Shaoqin still spoke calmly. Shi juechi vaguely felt that there was something inappropriate in her heart, but she didn''t know what that feeling was for "Shaoqin, you promise..." "What I promised you," Shi Shaoqin said with a smile on his pretty mouth, "I will do it." As soon as Shi Jue Chi heard it, he put down his heart, "go early and return early..." "I''m afraid not this time." Shi Shaoqin converged his eyes and looked forward. Shi Jue Chi looked at Shi Shaoqin puzzled. "Is it difficult?" "Fortunately..." Shi Shaoqin looked at Shi Jue Chi again and said calmly, "it''s just that there are some things to do." Shi Jue Chi rouhe''s face was crossed with a touch of thought, but it soon disappeared He nodded, smiled and said, "let those medical staff leave!" After a pause, he continued, "the Mo palace has kept doctors. There''s no point in those people... They''re all around me, but it''s not good." "Good!" Shi Shaoqin replied, "let them leave after a month''s observation period..." Shi juechi nodded without saying anything, but watched Shi Shaoqin leave. "Carney..." "Less Jue?" Carney asked. Shi juechi looked at the corridor where there was no human figure and said, "what conditions can attract Shaoqin to deliver the goods in person?" Carney shrugged. "Qin Shao''s mind is changeable. Who can guess?" "In addition to Gu Beichen, I can''t think of anyone else for the time being..." Shi juechi sighed and said, "after Shaoqin left, try to connect the equipment to the outside world." "Jue Shao wants to contact Gu Beichen?" Carney frowned. It''s not completely good to start tossing, really? Besides... He doesn''t believe that Qin Shao left. What would Jue Shao do without precaution?! "I''m not at ease..." Shi juechi''s face was a little dignified, so his heart was a little uncomfortable. "I want to make sure whether Jane Mo and her baby are well!" Carney didn''t persuade him either, but seeing that Shi juechi''s face was not good, he said, "when Qin Shao leaves, I''ll do it..." Shi juechi raised his hand and gently placed it in the heart, but looked at the corridor where Shi Shaoqin had long disappeared, and inexplicable uneasiness began to spread However, he knows Shaoqin''s temper. Now that I have agreed to his terms, I will do it In that case, what is he worried about? ¡­¡­ "Can lock three places..." Chen Yu took a pen and circled three places on the base map, and hurriedly looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen walked over and the eagle''s eyes fell deeply on the three places circled by Chen Yu. Then his slender fingers pointed to the position of Xinma. "Are you sure?" Chen Yu was a little surprised. "In these three places, Shi Shaoqin will prefer Malaysia..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth and immediately called Xiao Jing. "Set the fastest plane to Kuala Lumpur and then set the flight to Amsterdam with double identity!" "What about the interval?" Xiao Jing immediately asked. Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep. "Malaysia is a cover up. I''ll fly directly to Amsterdam." Xiao Jing didn''t ask much. After answering the voice, he hung up and went to do it. "You go straight to Holland?" Chen Yu was stunned. "Aren''t you sure brother took Jian Mo to Xinma?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gradually became deep and bottomless. "Why did Chen Zhaobai take Mo''er away?" Chen Yu opened his mouth, but he didn''t speak The Chen family is dissatisfied with the people on the road because of the share given by the Mo palace... If you want to eliminate such dissatisfaction, you must tie the bell. "Are you sure Shi Shaoqin will take Jian Mo to Holland?" Chen asked. "I''m gambling..." Gu Beichen said faintly, then turned and walked out. "Go back and accompany Jinxi. You can''t intervene in the rest." Looking at Gu Beichen''s back, Chen Yu felt as if he had been blocked by many stones, which made him out of breath. At Los Angeles Airport, Gu Beichen has been on the flight to Kuala Lumpur Just more than two hours before Gu Beichen took off, Shi Shaoqin got off the plane from Kuala Lumpur and went to the urban area. By the time we arrived at the hotel restaurant, it was already dark in Kuala Lumpur. In the noise of the night, the hotel restaurant is quiet, only soft piano music "You said..." Shi Shaoqin stopped at the door of the restaurant. "Chen, are you on your way to Kuala Lumpur?" Mohsen frowned slightly, and then calmly replied, "we have arranged manpower. As soon as he enters the country, he will know." Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but walked to the table of Chen Zhaobai and Jian mo When Jian Mo saw the person sitting quietly opposite, the corners of her mouth crossed with ridicule. She heard Shi Shaoqin gently smile at her and say, "Mo''er, meet again..." Chapter 697 Jane Mo looked at the man who had been in front of her for months, and then tried his best to appear in front of her, and slightly touched the corner of her mouth At first, I was able to act in front of him when my consciousness was not clear... Now, when I am awake, can I have stage fright? Chen Zhaobai thought that Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo knew each other. It was only Gu Beichen in the middle... But obviously, this is not the case! Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo are familiar with each other in terms of their names, and Jian Mo is no stranger to Shi Shaoqin''s attitude I really didn''t expect that Shi Shaoqin, who has always shown his pride, and women can affect him! "Why, are you going to stretch like this?" Shi Shaoqin whispered softly. His soft voice made people forget their tension. Jane''s face was cold, "otherwise?" She sniffed coldly, "I want to greet you with a smile?" Shi Shaoqin smiled. He was originally handsome and pleasant. Now when he smiled, even Chen Zhaobai felt relaxed and happy. "I still like to be on the beach..." Shi Shaoqin slightly raised his eyebrows, and his long and narrow eyes were as soft as water. "At that time, you were much more clever." At the mention of Haibin City, Jane morna''s anger can''t be controlled She clenched her hand and slightly skimmed her face. She didn''t want to argue. Shi Shaoqin looked at her with deep eyes There seems to be nothing if he doesn''t meet. How come when he meets, all he thinks about is the time of seaside city? Secretly frowning, Shi Shaoqin kept his face unchanged and asked with a smile: "I heard... You only ate a few fruits from yesterday to today?" When it comes to food, Jian Mo secretly grits her teeth... Her eyes stare at Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin didn''t mind her rejection and anger, so he called the waiter, "last B meal, a glass of strange juice..." he smiled at Jian Mo and said, "give it to her." "Yes, sir. Just a moment, please!" The waiter answered and left. "Do you think I''ll eat what you ordered?" Jane''s foam is cold and light. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, "what should I do?" His smile deepened, "I can''t... I''ve been hungry, and then I haven''t done anything. Will you end hechen''s child first?" "Shao, Shi!" Jian Mo was still irritated by Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin slightly tilted his head, raised his eyebrows and nodded, as if it was very useful for Jian Mo to call his "name". "Have some..." Shi Shaoqin said, "at least this is a hotel, and I just arrived." After a pause, he looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, "wait and go with me. You''re like this... I really don''t know when I''ll eat." Jian Mo was very angry, but he also knew that Shi Shaoqin was telling the truth. Chen Zhaobai has been sitting beside him. He doesn''t know what the relationship between Jian Mo and Shi Shaoqin is But he knows very well, I''m afraid... In this world, Jian Mo is the only one who dares to shake his face and talk to Shi Shaoqin like this, and is still alive! Is it because Gu Beichen or Shi Shaoqin has different feelings for Jian Mo? A Jian Mo asked Shi Shaoqin to come in person... He said he was not surprised. It was all a lie. He thought that only one person would be sent to take over at most Chen Zhaobai looked at Shi Shaoqin in silence, neither too sharp nor too indifferent If you "get along" with this man, if you have a little deviation, it may bring devastating harm. "Man, I answered!" Shi Shaoqin planned to make Mr. Jian Mo angry. "As for the Chen family, Mo palace can intervene this time... I''m afraid not next time." "I understand the rules!" Chen Zhaobai lost Shi Shaoqin a lot in momentum. In this world, no matter what industry it is, only those with ability and power have the power to speak and set rules. Chen Zhaobai looked at Jian Mo, "you should have something to eat..." he put a strange smile on the corner of his mouth, "I don''t want what others dare to touch." Then he got up, didn''t even say hello, and walked away with indifferent steps Jian morwei frowned, looked at Chen Zhaobai''s back, and smiled his lips, but he didn''t regret it. At the right time, the waiter brought B meal and strange juice. Looking at the delicious and exquisite food, Jane Mo just mocked herself. "Is it interesting to go around?" Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin smiled. "I''m too boring. I just play with human nature and people''s hearts to pass the time." "Would you like to introduce it again?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "It''s not good for you to think less about more things," Shi Qin said Jian Mo''s hand on her stomach clenched a lot and met Shaoshi again... All her uneasiness began to turn into fear under resistance. For a long time, the curious things in her heart also resisted inexplicably at this moment "Eat!" Shi Shaoqin said faintly, "silence is a failed product. I won''t use it for you." Jian Mo looks at Shi Shaoqin. He really understands people''s hearts... Seeing him, she is really worried about silence. Are you ready to eat, Jane But just as I was going to get the knife and fork, the plate in front of me was taken away. Jian Mo frowned and swam with the hand just like an art... Shi Shaoqin picked up a knife and fork and began to divide the food on the plate. After having dinner with Shi Shaoqin many times, this man pursues perfection. If he leaves out some bad things... It''s actually a very pleasant thing to see him eat. However, Jian Mo felt a chill on the soles of her feet as she watched him cut food. Chen Zhaobai walked to the door and subconsciously looked back Seeing Shi Shaoqin doing the most gentlemanly thing at the moment, he couldn''t help frowning. While leaving, he thought to himself: Shi Shaoqin doesn''t like Gu Beichen''s wife?! No one answered Chen Zhaobai, and only the precipitation of time can answer him. In the restaurant, the piano music is light and melodious, but there is no way to relieve Jian Mo''s nerves. She looked at Shi Shaoqin''s movements like this, and then put the divided food in front of her It''s unrealistic not to eat. She''s not hungry and has no appetite... There''s no way to ignore Xiao Yan. She didn''t know what would happen, because she lost her stupidity under judgment. If something happened to Xiao Yan... She would never forgive herself in her life. Jane Mo eats silently. The food is different from that at the seaside Love at that time was love under the condition of conscious opposition. Now these foods are what she likes Shi Shaoqin will know that Jian Mo is not surprised. A person who has been able to do what he likes since he first came into contact with her. These contents are the categories he has understood, aren''t they? "Mo''er, have you ever played the game of cat flirting with mouse?" Suddenly, Shi Shaoqin asked softly. Chapter 698 Jian Mo''s hand paused, raised his eyes and calmly looked at Shi Shaoqin Looking at the soft smile on the corner of his mouth, which can deceive many people, Jane Mo just wants to buckle the plate and food directly to his face at the moment. "Not interested!" Jian Mo replied coldly that no matter what Shaoshi wants to do at the moment, she doesn''t want to participate He didn''t even notice what deep foam was eating, so he didn''t notice it. Morson sat at another table not far away, looking at Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo with a cold expression But, at last, under the light that was not too bright, I covered the strange flash from the bottom of my eyes. Kuala Lumpur Airport. After Gu Beichen''s flight from Los Angeles got off, he went directly to the transfer channel. While walking, he called Xiao Jing "Arrange people to leave the airport..." Gu Beichen explained, "let''s be careful. The people left by Mosen will certainly not be ordinary people." "I understand." Xiao Jing replied, "they are all trained by Xiao Nan himself. They won''t make mistakes." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered and was ready to hang up. Xiao Jing hurriedly shouted, "Chen Shao..." Gu Beichen had deep eyes and walked steadily towards the front, "how?" "Shall I go?" Xiao Jing looked at his ticket to Amsterdam and said, "Chen Shao, I don''t trust you to go there alone." "There are many people, which is easy to attract attention." Gu Beichen said faintly, "there can''t be chaos in Los Angeles." Now, only by handing over all the affairs of the emperor and LA to Xiao Jing can he have no worries at home. Xiao Jing opened his mouth, sighed darkly, and tightened his hand holding the ticket, "I know..." His tone was filled with bitterness. He understood Chen Shao''s plan to keep him in Los Angeles. Can understand is one thing, worry about Chen Shao, is another thing. "That''s it..." Gu Beichen spoke calmly, then hung up the phone and went to the transfer office. Taking the double identity prepared in advance to go through the formalities, Gu Beichen looked at the time, and then went to the huge glass window... Looked at the city under the night and waited for boarding. He is now calculating the probability of Shi Shaoqin''s mind. It is possible for him to calculate wrong and right "Mo''er, I''m with you in hell..." Gu Beichen''s voice was low and dignified, but he placed something on it, "not afraid, okay?" Shi Shaoqin raised his hand slightly and put his hand on the glass window In the dark but filled with lights, Gu Beichen''s voice was reflected on the glass, as if... Someone was facing his palm across the glass. Although he is himself, at this moment... Gu Beichen hopes that the shadow is Jian mo. "I''ll accompany you..." Gu Beichen murmured with a deep and magnetic voice, gently ticking his thin lips and wiping a quiet and deep smile. "Oh!" Jane Mo suddenly snorted. Shi Shaoqin''s hand, which had gone to get the red wine cup, paused, slightly invisible, slightly frowned, and stared at Jian mo Jane Mo bared her mouth, put her hand on her stomach and hung her eyes. Little guy, you really didn''t spare strength for this kick... You kicked so hard! Jane Mo thought to herself: my mother doesn''t want to eat alone with men other than my father... But my mother can''t help it now! You''re good. Let''s wait for Dad to pick us up, okay? Xiao Yan didn''t know whether she was upset. She didn''t feel the comfort of Jian Mo and kept kicking Jian Mo in the stomach In terms of strength, it is obviously much lighter than that just now. The smile from the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth turned into a soft and sweet warmth. At this moment, she forgot Shi Shaoqin sitting opposite. She just gently followed Xiao Yan and kicked her position. It was fun! The darkness at the bottom of Shi Shaoqin''s eyes gradually spread. He looked at Jian Mo in this way. His handsome face with a shallow smile was solemnly covered by the haze. Timely Mosen answered the phone, looked at Jian Mo, attached himself to Shi Shaoqin''s ear and whispered, "man has left the airport." Shi Shaoqin kept looking at Jian mo. when Morson spoke, Jian Mo also looked at him "Let''s go!" Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth with a smile and gathered the fundus of his eyes, because the smile just showed by Jian Mo facing his big stomach was gloomy. Jane Mo clenched her hand, "I''m not full yet..." Although I didn''t know what Morson said, subconsciously, Jane Mo wanted to delay time. "I''ll be ready." Shi Shaoqin had already got up. He glanced down at Jian Mo and said, "don''t worry, I won''t do it to you and your stomach for the time being." Jane Mo frowned and clenched her teeth. On the same day, she was described by two people as "something". She obviously couldn''t suppress her anger. Jane Mo doesn''t want to go. She has a feeling... What Mosen told Shaoshi is Gu Beichen. But she didn''t want to go, but she couldn''t help him The car quickly but smoothly headed for the airport. Jane Mo looked around... Trying to find something. Unfortunately, at night, all she can see is neon and lights, or a chaotic nightlife crowd. At the airport, Jian Mo knew that Shaoshi was taking her to Amsterdam. Looking at the destination, she looked at Shi Shaoqin vigilantly, "why go there?" "Some business needs to be discussed..." Shi Shaoqin replied indifferently. Jane Mo''s breath is a little unstable and uneasy. She always thinks about the bad in her mind. As a place that can make soft drugs common and legal, and carry forward the red light district... Jane Mo really can''t think of where to go at the moment. Subconsciously, Jane wants to escape "Don''t worry!" Shi Shaoqin didn''t move. He just glanced at Jian Mo and said faintly, "your concern is not tenable." Jian Mo frowned and looked at Shi Shaoqin in horror... She didn''t say anything. He didn''t even look at her just now. How did he know what she was worried about? "First of all," Shi Shaoqin put down the newspaper in his hand, "I''m here to supply goods there. I want to treat you. I don''t need to go there. Second..." He paused, with a soft smile on his pretty mouth. However, there was a chill in Jian Mo''s sight Jane Mo subconsciously took another step back, but just ran into Mosen behind her... She looked back and looked pale. "My man..." Shi Shaoqin said quietly, "who dares to move?" Shi Shaoqin''s words didn''t make Jian Mo feel at ease, but... More afraid. She wanted to cover up, only to find... When the memory is as pale as paper, people are easy to hide and act. Because you have no concerns. Now, she can''t put away her fear... At least not at this moment. Shi Shaoqin clearly understood Jian Mo''s resistance to him, but it was only a moment and disappeared He restrained his eyes and said calmly, "rather than resist, it''s better to enjoy the journey." "Who can enjoy being with you?" Jane Mo gnashed her teeth. "He Yan''s eyes were cold and cold, and he shot at the stone foam Chapter 699 Jian Mo bit his teeth and looked at Shang Shi Shaoqin coldly The two men looked at it as if everything in the world didn''t exist. As long as they hit each other, they would win. Mosen stood behind Jian Mo with a cold face. He couldn''t see Jian Mo''s face, but he could feel the woman''s stubborn and tough attitude from Shi Shaoqin''s expression. He frowned secretly. He always thought that something would happen in the next second, but obviously... Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo remained in a state of confrontation until the broadcast of boarding came. Shi Shaoqin smiled, a very soft smile, which was also a "familiar" smile in Jian Mo''s memory. "Let''s go!" Shi Shaoqin, like greeting the most familiar people around him, stood up and waited for Jian mo. Jane Mo was very upset. Just when she looked at Shang Shi Shaoqin, she thought this man would strangle her directly. But finally... He even talked to her so genially, as if nothing had happened! No, it''s as if she had no memory when she was still on the beach! Jane Mo didn''t move. She didn''t want to go... Even, her eyes glanced slightly to the left and right, afraid of being discovered by Shi Shaoqin, but she couldn''t help looking for it. Shi Shaoqin was not in a hurry, but went to Jian mo Jane Mo saw him coming, but she didn''t avoid it. She just looked at her with black pupils. She didn''t have any feelings except anger. "Wait for Chen?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, smiling in a pleasant tone, but mocking, "do you think... I''ll give him a chance to see you before the plane takes off?" Jane Mo closed her eyes and squeezed out two words: "change, state!" Quiet! The world seems to be quiet in an instant! Such silence seems to be shrouded in the darkness of hell... No one can and has no right to open it except Satan who has fallen into the devil! Morson, who has always been indifferent, changed his face Everyone, as long as he has been in contact with Shi Shaoqin, knows that his character is almost crazy. But... No one dares to say so in front of him. "Well..." Jian Mo''s chin was pinched by Shi Shaoqin''s big palm, and he directly raised his hand slightly. Jian Mo couldn''t control his, but he pulled his face against him "What did you just say?" In the light voice, people can''t hear Shi Shaoqin''s mood at the moment. However, the quiet and slow tone, with an inexplicable and frightening chill, seemed to penetrate from hell and spread all over Jian Mo in an instant She was afraid, but she stubbornly looked at Shi Shaoqin and touched her lower lip. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes have narrowed slowly. Ignoring the voice reminding him to board the plane again in the radio, you Leng said, "why, I dare not say... I said it in my heart?" "Do you really think you can control people?" Jian Mo sniffed softly, and her mouth was pinched by Shi Shaoqin. However, except for the first sound, she didn''t show pain again, "I''m afraid and don''t think about anything... What can I say?" Shi Shaoqin frowned invisibly. Obviously, he didn''t expect Jian Mo''s answer. Ordinary people... Shouldn''t they refute, or should they answer in a ridiculous and stubborn way?! For a moment, the corners of Jane Mo''s mouth have been tighter If it weren''t for Xiaoyan, maybe she would lose her mind because of anger and carry it with Shaoshi... But now, she is really afraid to annoy him, and then Xiaoyan is hurt. For a time, the atmosphere was dignified and tense. Mohsen still looked indifferent, but there was an obvious examination in the depths of his eyes "Don''t try to annoy me!" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was flat without any tone. "Even if you are useful to me, I have many ways to make you live worse than death and continue to use you." Jian Mo''s breathing began to be heavy, which was suppressed by invisible force Shi Shaoqin slowly opened his fingers. Jian Mo only felt that his mouth was swollen and painful. "Let''s go..." Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth faintly, turned and wanted to go to the VIP boarding gate. I don''t know whether it''s instinct or don''t want Jane Mo to delay time. While turning around, he pulled Jane Mo''s wrist... Without any pause. Morson immediately looked deep, but in a flash, he disappeared. Jian Mo instinctively wants to get rid of Shi Shaoqin without thinking Unfortunately, in exchange for his tighter confinement, or even no strength. Jane Mo felt that her wrists could be pinched by Shao Shi when she tightened at that moment... But she could stand some things, and some couldn''t. She doesn''t like this man having such "close" contact with her. This feeling disgusts her. "Let go of me, I will go myself!" Jane Mo said, gritting her teeth. In her voice, there was an undisguised alienation under indifference. Shi Shaoqin not only did not let go, but held on more tightly. "Ah!" Jane Mo couldn''t help crying out because of the instant pain. "Are you going to break my hand?" "Didn''t you let me go?" Shi Shaoqin said coldly without looking back. "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, and the fine cold overflowed from her forehead because of pain. "Then, does it make me feel the opposite, and I''ll say, let you hurry up?" "You said, I''ll hold it tighter!" Shi Shaoqin said coldly. Jane Mo grinned and whispered angrily, "I knew... How naive!" Shi Shaoqin looked back at Jian Mo, who was pulled by him and held his stomach in one hand. His eyes were deep, but he didn''t say anything. When the gears of the plane rub against the ground and climb up in the dark sky with a roar Jane Mo tilted her head to look at the landmark lights of Kuala Lumpur Airport from the small window and sighed. At the same time, an early Jian Mo and Shi Shaoqin took the plane for more than an hour and took the lead in leaving Kuala Lumpur for Amsterdam Gu Beichen sat near the window, lying back on the seat, slightly closing his eyes and pretending to sleep. Once the most feared and resisted thing, now for Mo''er, he has nothing to escape People''s past can''t be erased, only face it. Slowly open your eyes, Gu Beichen''s eyes fall in front When things didn''t come, he was careful and guarded everywhere, afraid that Shi Shaoqin would hurt Mo''er. But when it came to this time, in fact... He was not so worried. Shi Shaoqin wants to restrain him with Mo''er, so he won''t really hurt Mo''er Now, he is just afraid. Under the worry and panic, will Xiaoyan have an accident. If Xiao Yan has something to do, I''m afraid... Mo''er can''t stand it. Rubbed his swollen head, Gu Beichen resisted to choose... He didn''t want to face and choose such a situation. But what if there is such a situation?! Chapter 700 Jane Mo looked at the small window, even if she could only see a radian light that didn''t know where it was She doesn''t know what Shao Shi wants to do. The only thing she can think of is to use her to Jian Mo''s thoughts suddenly stagnated, and then turned to Shi Shaoqin who was reading a magazine He said ''cat flirting with mouse'' game?! Who is a cat? Who is a mouse Shi Shaoqin glanced at Jian Mo, with a soft smile on his handsome face, but without a trace of heart, "why, have you figured out something?" "Are you tired?" Jian Mo took back her sight and didn''t go to see Shi Shaoqin. "Huh?" Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo suspiciously. Jian Mo sneered coldly at the corners of her mouth. "People who like to calculate other people''s thoughts are often because they don''t get other people''s attention..." she pulled a fake smile at the corners of her mouth and looked at Shi Shaoqin, "you''re asking for attention... Frankly, it''s pity!" "..." Shi Shaoqin suddenly looked cold. "Do I need to ask for attention?" Jian Mo''s smile has become a skin smile, flesh does not smile, and a fake seeping person, "those who care about you either want to get benefits from you, or want to bring you down, or want to replace you... You do have a lot of such attention, and you don''t need it!" "..." Shi Shaoqin frowned again. Starting from the design of yueyahu villa, he knew that this woman was very professional, smart... And polite. When she was in Haibin City, Xu lost her memory. She was ignorant, but she knew what she wanted to do... She would not compromise easily. At the moment, she is another side that Shi Shaoqin has never seen... A rose with thorns all over her body! "Do you have a family?" Jane Mo asked suddenly. Shi Shaoqin coldly withdrew his sight, looked at the magazine in his hand again, and didn''t answer. Jane mosh wanted to talk to dispel her fear and uneasiness. She said alone, "or... Do you have close friends or lovers?" Shi Shaoqin ignored Jian Mo and even suddenly became a little agitated "I once had a happy home, but then I didn''t." Jian Mo lay back on the seat and adjusted a comfortable arc. "I just thought that a person can work hard... And the result of his efforts is to form a home again." Shi Shaoqin''s eyebrows have gradually frowned Jane Mo didn''t find it. She just smiled, looked down at her stomach, stroked her and said, "then I have another home. The people I love, the people who love me..." Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful handsome face has been gradually covered by the frost, and even his sight has become familiar with it "I don''t know the world with rights and rich people, what is the idea of home..." Jane Mo originally just didn''t want to let herself think nonsense before looking for a topic to talk, but she said, a little sad. "For a woman, home and love are sometimes the whole of her life." Shi Shaoqin suddenly closed the magazine and looked deeper and deeper "Strong women or little sheep..." Jane Mo laughed at herself. "Nothing is more attractive than holding hands and staying with them until they grow old." Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo with a cold breath covering his surroundings. Jane Mo closed her eyes and fell into her own world. At the moment, she just didn''t want to let others see her hope and sadness But also because she closed her eyes, she didn''t see Shi Shaoqin''s cold and discolored face at the moment. Later, when she knew everything, she was looking back Did you not ignore some things at the beginning? Then, many things may have different ways to go?! ¡­¡­ Li Yunze heard that Gu Beichen had left, after a very complicated nerve operation I thought I had more than three months to face, but it happened without warning. "Beichen went alone like this?" Li Yunze frowned and asked. Xiao Jing nodded solemnly, jerked at the corners of his mouth and said, "we all know that Chen Shao can only solve this thing by himself... No one can help." Li Yunze looked at Xiao Jing, and his face was also dignified. "How can it be that boss long has just returned to England?" He said and rubbed his sour shoulder. "I suddenly found that every time there was something big, old dragon was just trapped by something." "At a glance..." Xiao Jing shrugged. Although it involves the dragon family behind it, if anything happens, the Dragon owl can''t watch Gu Beichen. Who is his brother Shi Shaoqin didn''t want to compete with the dragon family, so he had to avoid the Dragon Owl... He also caught the Dragon owl''s psychology that he didn''t want the dragon family to enter his world. Li Yunze closed his eyes with a headache and sighed deeply, "it''s really an eventful autumn..." he sneered, "now think about it, the four of us are going south. Now life is the simplest." Xiao Jing looked at Li Yunze and smiled astringently, "Nan Shao just needs to sweat all day, and then think about how to beat warwolf Wei Chen and win the competition... Indeed, he is the simplest." Li Yunze opened his eyes because he didn''t rest after the operation and had some red blood. "It''s not that he is the simplest, but that he looks at his feelings most thoroughly from beginning to end..." Li Yunze''s eyes fall in front, but there is no focus and some laxity. "We have never seen clearly and missed too many times we should cherish." Sad emotions are mixed with complex emotions The purest word in the world is "love". However, the hardest to understand and the most tormenting... Is also this word! ¡­¡­ When Gu Beichen arrived in Amsterdam, it was just nightfall It''s raining outside. The cold breath is like a small needle, slowly penetrating into your skin. Gu Beichen looked at the time and first checked the next plane from Kuala Lumpur to Amsterdam Recently, there is one in less than two hours, and another in three hours He didn''t continue to check. According to the time he arrived in Kuala Lumpur, Shi Shaoqin should take these two flights if he really thought. "Buy a bunch of flowers, sir?" The young girl''s voice came. Xu often sold flowers at the airport and spoke very standard English. Gu Beichen looked at the little girl with a full tulip in her hand, and her eyes became soft She looks a little older than Xiao Jie at most. "Good!" Gu Beichen squatted down. "Can you wrap flowers?" "Of course!" The little girl pointed aside, "can you go there?" Gu Beichen nodded, got up and went to the seat in the corner with the little girl. Looking at her skillfully wrapping flowers, her eyes were deep and soft Perhaps, after all the dust has settled, he and Mo''er can have another girl. Didn''t you say... Is your daughter a sweet little cotton padded jacket?! Gu Beichen looked at the little girl''s actions and his eyes became deeper and deeper... As if he could imagine that one day, his daughter would be spoiled by him and smile sweetly. Chapter 701 Jane Mo doesn''t want to sleep, but when her eyes are closed and immersed in her own world, her body controls her consciousness, and she still sleeps slowly Shi Shaoqin saw that Jian Mo didn''t respond for a long time. When he found that she breathed evenly and fell asleep... The cold breath on her body hit the cotton with a punch. "How dare you sleep?" Shi Shaoqin spoke quietly, but his voice was kept low, as if afraid of disturbing Jian mo. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo and fell asleep. Seeing that she was not moving, he took back his sight Yu Guang caught a glimpse of her hand still on her swollen stomach, her eyes sank, and a touch of complex emotion crossed her deep. Lying on the seat, Shi Shaoqin looked at the front with indifferent eyes Jane Mo''s words just lingered in his mind, lingering and annoying. Shi Shaoqin''s handsome facial lines gradually tightened and looked at Jian Mo again At the right time, Jane Mo''s body moved slightly and the thin blanket covered on her fell. Shi Shaoqin frowned imperceptibly. Subconsciously, he went to pick up the thin blanket first, and then took advantage of the situation to cover Jian mo Just as he was about to cover her, he seemed to reflect what he was doing. Suddenly, his face was a little gloomy and threw the blanket aside. Jane Mo''s mouth fell and her eyebrows gradually wrinkled... It seemed as if she had dreamed of something, which made her a little sad. In Haibin City, Jian Mo slept relatively early every day Shi Shaoqin occasionally stood by the bed and looked at Jane Morse''s sleeping face under the dim wall lamp. Almost the same scene, Shi Shaoqin couldn''t say what he wanted to do at this moment It''s only a few hours since Jane froth, but he has the ability to be so angry that he can sleep so safely for several times?! Shi Shaoqin sniffed coldly, astringed his eyes and continued to look at the magazine. But he moved for a moment. Suddenly, with a cold face, he picked up the blanket and covered Jane Morse with some tenderness. Xu was too noisy. When Shi shaoqingai ignored Jian Mo, Jian Mo''s eyelashes trembled and suddenly opened his eyes. What enters the eye is the soft light reflection, some fuzzy handsome side face Shi Shaoqin is really good-looking. You can feel different beauty from any angle. Such a beautiful man has a abnormal heart Jian Mo was stunned. Suddenly, Shi Shaoqin turned his head and looked at her... She instinctively closed her eyes. However, it opened again in two seconds. Shi Shaoqin put a thin smile on the corner of his beautiful mouth, "pretend to sleep?" He said softly, "you have great ability to deceive me." He smiled, giving a cold chill. Jane Mo leaned over her face and didn''t explain that she was really asleep. She was just awakened by his action of covering the blanket "It will be here in another hour..." Shi Shaoqin restrained his eyes, narrowed his narrow eyes slightly, and suddenly asked, "you said..." he deliberately paused, then turned back, and just saw Jian Mo looking at him, "... Chen, will he suddenly wait for us there?" Jian Mo''s eyes gathered for a moment and looked at Shi Shaoqin with his lips. "Looking forward to it?" Shi Shaoqin asked. Jane Mo sat up. "Is it fun to play with me?" "OK!" Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were slightly deep and looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight, as if to penetrate her heart from her eyes. Jane Mo felt a little fluffy. She looked at Shi Shaoqin''s line of sight and resisted slightly. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo and smiled His smile made Jane Mo even more angry. "What are you doing?" Jane Mo hesitated and asked, a little cautious. Shi Shaoqin smiled deeply, "it seems that I can know... Chen, why I like you." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and felt that she was not in line with the man''s brain wave. You couldn''t keep up with how his thoughts turned. Shi Shaoqin converged his sight, and his smile gradually became gloomy. He was just joking However, he forgot that the present day was no longer the sunshine boy. He was the one who escaped from him, even... In that case! Jian Mo looked closely at Shi Shaoqin''s smile. She didn''t know why. She seemed to feel what he was laughing at? Ah Chen is not... Not in Kuala Lumpur, but in Amsterdam?! Such an idea made Jane Mo jump with joy... But she was soon suppressed. She clenched her lips, expecting and fearing She swallowed it secretly. Jane Mo looked out of the small window. She couldn''t see anything except the radian light. Hands, gently caress the stomach Jane Mo bit her teeth: Xiao Yan, we will be with Dad, yes ¡­¡­ In Mo palace, the waves outside disturbed the late night. Shi juechi looked at Kani trying to connect with the outside world. His soft face was a little pale. "Jue Shao..." Carney was busy. "Why don''t you go and have a rest first? I''ll call you when I''m done." He paused and looked at the time, "it''s already four o''clock..." "Don''t worry, how do you let me rest?" Shi juechi''s voice was neither light nor heavy, and then sighed. Carney frowned, no more hands, and continued to beat the drum. Shi juechi controls the button of the wheelchair and goes to the bedside On the sea level, a faint dawn can be seen. A new day is coming. Carney is still trying to break through the line of defense left by Shi Shaoqin against Shi juechi. "It seems that I saw J in Mo palace a few days ago... I can''t get around it. Did he do it?" Shi juechi didn''t move, but frowned slightly. After a while, he said, "children''s thinking is sometimes very complex and simple..." he looked back at Carney, "play hard, don''t think too complicated." Carney looked at the stone Jue Chi and finally nodded. Sure enough, according to Shi Jue Chi, he simplified the complexity in ten minutes... He found a loophole that could last for half a minute. "Send the message..." Shi juechi said hurriedly. Carney gave a sound, flipped his fingers quickly, and sent the pre thought good news to Gu Beichen''s mobile phone anonymously The "buzz" of the mobile phone vibrated. At the same time, the arrival of the flight from Kuala Lumpur came from the radio. Gu Beichen didn''t go to see the text message, but his eyes focused on connecting to the airport exit monitoring video software As long as Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo come out, he is confident that he can see it at the first time. As time moved slowly, Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes had condensed. Even, he didn''t blink, as if he was afraid... What was wrong! Chapter 702 When all the passengers on the plane got off, a flight attendant came to inform Shi Shaoqin to get off the plane Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo and got up without saying anything. The plane didn''t stop at the departure hall. Passengers still need to take the shuttle bus to leave. Jane Moruo lifted her lower lip and looked through the small window at the airport hall, which is still a little far away Under the drizzle, the light was a little blurred, and Jane Mo''s mind was at a loss. "Qin Shao!" Morson saw two people coming out at the exit, then took his clothes from the flight attendant behind him and handed them to him. Shi Shaoqin took it, looked at it and turned around Jian Mo thought about whether he would see Gu Beichen later, and didn''t pay attention to Shi Shaoqin''s actions... His eyes drooped when he turned around. Feeling something wrong, Jian Mochi looked up at Shi Shaoqin, looked at him coldly and asked, "can''t you go down?" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and didn''t say anything. He just unfolded his down jacket and put it on Jian mo. The soft feeling spread to the skin instantly The weather in Malaysia is still very hot. Chen Zhaobai has changed Jian Mo into fresh clothes. But the temperature in Holland is very low now. With the rain at night, the cold air in the air rushes in from time to time from the place of the cabin door Just now, Jian Mo was thinking about Gu Beichen and didn''t care. Until Shi Shaoqin put on a cotton padded clothes for her, she felt a little cold on her face. Looking at Shi Shaoqin, Jian Mo is a little confused Shi Shaoqin ignored Jian Mo, but turned around and wanted to get off the plane with one hand. Mosen glanced at Jian Mo, followed indifferently, and gave Shi Shaoqin an umbrella Jian Mo looked at the back of the two men and muttered. She was also ready to get off the plane... At the right time, a flight attendant handed her umbrella with a smile. "Thank you!" Jane Mo politely thanked her and took the umbrella and opened it. After getting off the plane, Jian Mo looked left and right. As far as he could see, there was no expected figure except the light under the searchlight. Shi Shaoqin stopped and looked back at Jian Mo calmly It seems to be waiting for her and laughing at her. Jian Mo was in a heavy mood. After seeing Shi Shaoqin, she walked forward silently Shi Shaoqin also stepped up again. After walking for a while, Jian Mo suddenly found that their direction was not to the airport. "Don''t we leave?" Jane Mo frowned and asked. She looked around, and there were no cars parked nearby for them to go to the exit or something?! "Who told you we were leaving the airport?" Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth calmly, and his voice seemed to be mixed with a little smile under the sound of rain hitting the umbrella. Jane Mo frowned. "What do you mean?" Shi Shaoqin did not explain, but continued to move forward. Jane Mo gritted her teeth, grabbed the umbrella handle, looked back at the airport, looked at Shi Shaoqin, and thought about the possibility of running away Qin Mo just walked away. Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin''s indifferent back, sighed and followed Don''t say she has a big stomach now. Even if it''s normal, it''s impossible to escape?! Jane Mo hung her eyes and looked at her toes stepping on the wet ground across her erect stomach. She thought again... If Gu Beichen was really outside the airport and they didn''t go out, wouldn''t they pass by?! "I''m kidding, and you take it seriously?" Shi Shaoqin stopped and looked at Jian Mo, who was about to bump into him because he was trapped in his own thoughts. "Do you think Chen... Will really be in Amsterdam?" Jane Mo stopped and looked up at Shi Shaoqin... Her lips moved, but then she frowned and forgot to look around. Behind Shi Shaoqin, there was a small plane similar to a small passenger plane. On the plane, there was a very strange logo. Because it was too dark, Jane Mo couldn''t see it clearly. Taking back his sight, Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin with doubts in the bottom of his eyes Shi Shaoqin explained to her with his actions, and the man turned and got on the plane. Jane Mo clutched the umbrella handle. "Am I serious, or do you dare not leave the airport?" She gritted her teeth. "You''re afraid that ah Chen is here, aren''t you? That''s why you don''t dare to go out of the airport and transfer again!" Jane Mo''s heart is beating like a drumstick. She is nervous, afraid and even looking forward to Shi Shaoqin stopped boarding, turned slightly, and looked at Jian Mo with a shallow smile on his mouth. Jane Mo frowned, and she saw sarcasm on his face. "It doesn''t work for me." Shi Shaoqin said coldly. Jane Mo twisted her eyebrows "From beginning to end..." Shi Shaoqin said faintly, "I didn''t intend to leave the airport!" He looked back. "Whether he is or not, it makes no difference to me." When the words fell, Shi Shaoqin looked back at Jian Mo, who was stunned, and then entered the cabin. Morson didn''t go in, but waited Jian Mo secretly gritted her teeth, no matter whether Shi Shaoqin said it was true or false, but... I don''t know why, she had an urgency in her heart. Looking back at the direction of the lights on at the airport... Jane Mo doesn''t know whether she thinks more or because of love, so her heart has a sharp connection. She has a strong feeling that ah Chen is not far from her! "Miss Jane, do you need me to ask you to board?" Morson''s cold words came without tone. Jane Mo took back her sight, looked at Morson, smiled her lips... She walked forward slowly with hesitation. Ah Chen, ah Chen Ah Chen Xiao Yan and I are here. Where are you? ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen looked at the airport exit monitoring while his eagle eyes looked around like a detector He can''t guarantee anything, but as long as Mo''er appears, he can guarantee to see her at the first time. The crowd from surging to scattered... However, there was no figure of Jian mo. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and wondered if it would be the next flight?! "Uncle, are you waiting for someone?" Gu Beichen''s eyes are offset. It''s the little girl selling flowers just now Xu was thinking of his daughter and Mo''er''s daughter, and Gu Beichen had a good feeling for the little girl. "Yes!" Gu Beichen nodded. The little girl fanned her eyes, "I''m very familiar here. Tell me what it looks like. I can help you pay attention..." "Hmm..." Gu Beichen hesitated slightly and finally said, "a big belly, very beautiful oriental woman." "Your wife?" Gu Beichen nodded with a smile. For the title of "wife", his obviously tense mood was slightly relieved. "OK, you wait here, I''ll show you around..." after the little girl said hello, she turned and continued to sell flowers while looking around. At this time, there are relatively few Oriental people coming to Amsterdam. An oriental woman with a big stomach... If she appears, it''s not difficult to find. But the premise is... If it happens! Chapter 703 Jane Mo looked back frequently, but no matter how slow she was, she had to board the plane She couldn''t help looking back at the door of the cabin. Even, at that moment, she was naive and childish thinking... How good would it be if she turned around and ah Chen ran towards her at the last moment with the same plot as those idol dramas?! However, in the dark environment, only the faint light on the fuselage comes out Because all the people who left were gone, there was some quiet around her, which made her whole heart empty. With disappointment, Jane Mo turned and entered the cabin After she went in, Mosen took the umbrella and followed her in. The cabin door didn''t close, and Morson didn''t go in. He just put his umbrella away and stood there. Jane Mo glanced at her and glanced coldly... She didn''t escape under the plane. Now? This man has water in his head?! She vented her dissatisfaction on Morson. Instead of relieving her anger, Jane Mo began to get upset. It''s terrible to be led by the nose. "How to distribute the share of the golden triangle next year and how much each party will take..." a voice came from the cabin, "how to arrange between Qin Shao and horst? The general said, you can discuss it yourself." Jane Mo stopped, and the voice of the people inside could be heard clearly across the curtain The most important thing is that they speak English and she has no difficulty in listening. "It belongs to Mo palace," said Shi Shaoqin in a slightly lazy voice, "you can''t lose a cent!" It''s a casual voice, but it shows a tough attitude. "Jin Sanjiao failed to harvest this year and has lost our share..." some gloomy voices came, "Qin Shao, is this not a way to live?" The man''s voice fell, followed by a period of silence Even if Jane Mo can''t see the people inside, she can feel that the atmosphere has condensed together, making people unable to breathe. "I can''t control it..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was always peaceful. "I came here to show the position of Mo palace. As for what the general thinks, or how to divide the share... That''s not my business." "The general said..." the tone of the first speaker was obviously pondering, "according to the weather, the share of next year must still owe some. As for your two families, the general asked me to make an appointment for..." What was said later, Jane Mo was not in the mood to listen. She turned around, went to the cabin exit, looked at Morson, and looked outside There was still no expected figure, and she had some lost and convergent eyes. "Qin Shao said, you can not avoid..." Mosen said coldly. "They don''t necessarily talk for long. You''d better go in and sit down." "I''m not interested in your dirty deals!" Jane Mo sneered. Although she didn''t hear what was clearly said in it, what was the most important thing in golden triangle? It''s not papaverine The last thing that comes out is poison! She felt that Shao Shi was not a good man, but she didn''t expect that he was selling drugs No wonder when he was at Kuala Lumpur Airport, he would say, if what to her, he doesn''t need to come to the Netherlands! Jane Mo tilted her head and looked out again The rain is a little heavy now. It falls on the ground and scattered the light and shadow in the water circle reflected. Xiao Yan kicked Jian Mo''s stomach uneasily. While she comforted her gently, she sighed secretly Cats flirt with mice... That is to say, Shao Shi flirts with ah Chen! Such a game, with her in the middle, is not fair... Even ah Chen is constrained everywhere because she is worried about her and Xiao Yan. The sound inside came occasionally, but Jane Mo didn''t listen carefully... Until someone angrily opened the curtain and came out. "Horst..." a shouting voice followed, and another figure rushed out behind Horst and grabbed him quickly. "Qin Shao is so tough. Please tell the general that I can''t compromise!" Horst was obviously helpless. The man who followed came out with a beard on his face. He was a little embarrassed, "but you know, Qin Shao doesn''t let go. It''s hard to do!" "This year''s share has been very small," Horst was dissatisfied. "If this goes on, how can the people below live next year?" The beard sighed, "otherwise... I''ll go back first and report today''s results to the general." Paused, "let''s see how the general solves it!" Horst is dissatisfied, but he knows that this is the only way for the time being The ability of Mo palace. If he sticks to it now, the result will only be worse. "That''s the only way..." Horst said helplessly and turned to get off the plane. When passing Jane Mo, he could not help looking at her more... A touch of doubt crossed his eyes. After Horst left, he returned to the inner cabin with his beard, said hello to Shi Shaoqin, and turned and left... Like Horst, he couldn''t help looking more curiously at Jian Mo with a big belly. After the man left, Jian Mo went to the inner cabin and saw Shi Shaoqin looking at him with his mobile phone "Ready to take off!" Shi Shaoqin spoke indifferently. Morson answered and went to prepare. Jian Mo has a large number of inner cabins. It is not an ordinary passenger plane. From complete facilities to Shuyi, it is a private luxury plane "Huh?" Shi Shaoqin motioned Jian Mo to sit aside. Jane Mo walked over and still looked around It''s estimated that the cost of this plane is not cheap. If she thinks about it, it''s not cheap. "Here..." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes deepened and handed Jian Mo his mobile phone. Jane Mo looked at him suspiciously and didn''t take it. "Haven''t you been thinking about it?" Shi Shaoqin smiled faintly at the corners of his mouth, "here!" Jian Mo slightly wrung her eyebrows and took the mobile phone, and then her vision moved from Shi Shaoqin''s face to the mobile phone It''s a video. It looks like it''s at the airport Jane Mo suddenly dilated her pupils and focused on a figure. She couldn''t help staring at Shi Shaoqin, as if waiting for his confirmation. "He was at the airport..." Shi Shaoqin said with a smile. "I didn''t expect... He guessed my mind now. He guessed so accurately!" ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen always has some unspeakable emotions in his heart. He turns off the monitoring and opens the text message easily It''s an anonymous message with no special content, only the itinerary that Shi Shaoqin needs to deal with in the last week! Meet Horst with the representative of the Golden Triangle Gu Beichen suddenly dilated his pupils. Even before he could think more, he ran to the airport. "Sir, you don''t..." The words of the airport security guard were blocked by Gu Beichen''s special pass. He shrugged and watched Gu Beichen rush into the airport. Chapter 704 Looking at the figure on the video, Jian Mo began to breathe quickly, and her hand holding the mobile phone gradually clenched up "Very angry?" Shi Shaoqin gave a soft sigh, and his smile deepened a lot. Jane Morse really wanted to hit her mobile phone on his face, "you... You did it on purpose!" Shi Shaoqin smiled deeper. "I said, from beginning to end... I didn''t intend to leave the airport!" After a pause, he rarely explained kindly, "Horst is very powerful in Holland, but it is also the main target of the police... I''m not interested in performing any drama with him!" Jane Mo clenched her hand and her eyes were a little red That kind of heart under expectation and perception is like being severely whipped by someone Close at hand, but they can''t meet... And they have to be fooled by this pervert! "I want to get off the plane!" Jane Mo put down her cell phone and stood up. Shi Shaoqin ignored her at all. He just took the red wine and cup and poured himself a glass of wine Jane Mo''s head has fainted. She doesn''t think about it. She just wants to get off the plane and find Gu Beichen... But when she goes to the door of the engine room, she finds that the door of the engine room has been closed. "Miss, the plane will take off in ten minutes..." the flight attendant said in sweet English. "Excuse me, can I help you?" "I want to get off the plane!" Jane Mo said gnashing her teeth. The flight attendant''s smile is still sweet, "Miss, I''m sorry... The cabin door has been closed and the plane will take off later, please..." "Stop!" Jane Mo stopped the flight attendant. The next words were ''buzzing'' in her head. The flight attendant looked at Jane Mo with a smile, as if he could understand her irritability. Jane Mo closed her eyes and tried to breathe deeply, so that she could calm down a little When she opened her eyes, Jane Mo saw that Mosen came out of the cockpit and looked at her coldly... There was no expression, but she felt ridicule. Turning around, Jane Mo entered the inner cabin again. All the luxurious things fell into her eyes at the moment and became the most dazzling. Instead of returning to the seat where she began to sit, Jane Mo went to the other side and looked out of the window The nose was sore uncontrollably and the eyes were red. The time difference makes her almost unable to figure out the time to separate from ah Chen... Is it one day or two? She doesn''t know... She only knows that she misses him so much! I miss him holding her and whispering in her ear... I miss his kiss, his breath and everything about him! Jane Mo pressed her lips tightly. Such sadness was under chagrin, and there was a feeling of despair. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo sideways. A trace of doubt crossed his eyes... As if he didn''t understand where the sadness came from? Isn''t it... Shouldn''t I be very angry and angry now?! ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen didn''t dare to stay for a moment because he was looking for it. According to his psychological speculation about Shi Shaoqin, the negotiation with Horst cannot be outside or in public. Well, his goal is just to lock in the place suitable for negotiation in the airport It''s raining harder. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes slightly gathered into two sharp lights. The cold and carved facial lines were tightly stretched. Private jet?! Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was suddenly cold, and then his eyes shuttled through the rain At this time, there are many planes arriving and taking off... The roaring sound is full of deafening mania. Some airport staff have come and tried to persuade Gu Beichen to leave But when he saw the special pass in his hand, he could only follow him and deploy it with walkie talkie in time. "Where does the private airliner stop?" Gu Beichen asked coldly. The airport staff was stunned and then pointed to the direction "Stop the take-off of private planes!" Gu Beichen put down a sentence and ran away in the direction pointed by the staff. The staff shrugged. Because Gu Beichen had a special certificate in his hand, he could only take a walkie talkie and transfer it to the dispatching room to explain the situation "Sorry, five minutes later, a private airliner took off..." a voice came from the control room. "That airliner has special permission and is not controlled by the control room!" As soon as the staff listened, they could only chase Gu Beichen away... Trying to explain the situation to him. After all, the certificate in his hand shows that there may be omissions in their work at the airport and some unnecessary trouble. Gu Beichen''s tall figure ran like a cheetah on a rainy night... If the staff didn''t know the direction, they might have lost it long ago. ¡­¡­ "The plane will be ready to enter the take-off channel in two minutes..." the voice of the captain came from the aircraft broadcast. Jian Mo looked out of the window and her eyes were already filled with a thin layer of water mist. She has never had the urgency, she wants to see him... Even at a glance! "Can I help you inform him?" Shi Shaoqin''s slow voice came, and he couldn''t hear any emotion. Jane Mo tilted her head, stared at Shi Shaoqin fiercely, and said gnashing her teeth: "no, need, want!" Every word, she squeezed it out of her teeth Shi Shaoqin looked deep at Jian Mo''s angry but reddish eyes, frowned and smiled at the corners of his beautiful mouth, "don''t say... He may not know my next trip!" "..." Jane Mo''s eyes widened. How can there be such abnormal and bad people in this world?! He plays with your heart all the time, making you in a dilemma, and even... Don''t know how to make a choice. Because you want to choose every choice, but the next trap may be waiting for you! "Really not?" Shi Shaoqin smiled at the corners of his mouth. He looked at Jian Mo in this way, with deep eyes and pondering. Jane morhu glanced at the corner of her mouth and glanced at him impolitely. The rain outside hit the small window, and the halo of the lamp stained the line of sight The plane has started, turning slowly and ready to drive to the preparatory runway Suddenly A figure came running fast in the rain. Even if the light is dim and there is a shadow... Jian Mo suddenly recognizes Gu Beichen. Jian Mo''s heart ''Shua'' mentioned her throat, holding her hand on the small window and looking at the people getting closer and closer The plane drove slowly. At this moment, Jane Mo forgot everything. She just looked at the tall figure through the small window wet by the rain. Gu Beichen''s whole body has been soaked, and his unruly hair is shaking with the rain in front of his forehead Jane Mo slapped the small window, her nose suddenly sour and her eyes blurred. Gu Beichen was panting and slowly stopped running. He looked at his face on the small window, which was clearly reflected by the light of the cabin Until, the sight of Jian Mo on the... The eagle''s eyes are getting deeper and deeper. Chapter 705 Regardless of the danger, Gu Beichen moves with the movement of the plane... Always keep an angle with Jian Mo''s line of sight. Jane Mo''s eyes began to turn red. She tried not to look too sad. She is in the light. She knows that ah Chen can feel her sadness even if she may not see very clearly She didn''t want him to think about her mood when he was worried. She bent her mouth hard, and Jane Mo smiled Even at that moment, tears uncontrollably overflow from the eyes and scald across the cheeks. He waved his hand and signaled that he and Xiao Yan were very good. There was nothing wrong. But Beichen ignored the voice of the airport staff behind him, but ignored him. Jian Mo motioned Gu Beichen to step back. The plane might accelerate at any time... She didn''t want him to get hurt. Even if she misses him so much It''s good to think of it and take a more look. Gu Beichen followed the plane and looked at Jian Mo and told him that she and her children were well. Watching her let him leave, worried about him The position of the heart was contracting one by one. Gu Beichen felt that his heart was still beating because of the pain of suffocation. His Mo''er... She was so strong that she didn''t let him worry. However, how could Shi Shaoqin not worry about it? He was afraid Afraid that she was afraid because she couldn''t wait for him. In the face of stormy waves, with him by her side, she at least has a chest to rely on... Isn''t it?! Gu Beichen raised a soothing smile at the corner of his mouth, even if Jian Mo might not see it. He raised his hand slowly and crossed his thumb and index finger slightly I heard... This is the most wordless and romantic way for men to express their love for women this year. Tears fall down like a spring of ''Susu''. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s gesture and couldn''t help sobbing The plane began to accelerate gradually. Jian Mo raised his hand and made the same gesture towards Gu Beichen on the side of the small window Ah Chen, I''ll wait for you until the end of the world! The sound of the "whine" engine speed came, and Gu Beichen could not catch up with the trajectory of the plane under acceleration, so he had to be left behind. Looking at the sound of the eagle rising from the bottom of the rain, Gu didn''t see the roar of the plane. The staff stood not far away, looked at the nearly crazy men in front, looked at each other, and then walked forward, "Sir, this area is very dangerous. Can you leave first?" Gu Beichen didn''t move. He just looked at the weak indicator light getting farther and farther away. Finally, he disappeared into the depths of the naked eye Jane Mo was still crying on the small window, and her hand was pasted on the glass with the gesture of love. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly at Jian Mo and said coldly, "originally, you are not as strong as you imagined..." "You shut up -" Jian Mo was as crazy as he was. While Shi Shaoqin''s words fell, he turned back and roared. Mosen''s eyes looked at Jian Mo coldly. Deep in his eyes, he faintly spilled cold hiss. "Do you think..." Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful handsome face is shrouded in black fog, "... I allow your arrogance, which can make you open your mouth?!" "I don''t need to feel!" Jian Mo cried and said coldly, "you can strangle me. You''d better throw me off the plane!" "While enduring it," Shi Shaoqin sneered, "how about dying in Chen''s arms?" Jian Mo was stunned for a moment, and even forgot to continue to look at Shi Shaoqin with tears Gradually, the bottom of my eyes showed fear. This man is so handsome that people are excited. Why is his heart so black that people are afraid? He can always hit the nail on the head and make your reason collapse, or instantly wake up from the edge of collapse. Shi Shaoqin looked back. "Don''t try to provoke me," he said coldly. "I have too many ways to make your life worse than death." He looked at Jian Mo again and his eyes fell on her swollen stomach Jane Mo''s face "brushed" and turned pale. She leaned to the side and hurriedly protected her stomach with both hands... As if she could protect Xiao Yan. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo and his sight became deep Just now I looked crazy and didn''t care about anything... At this moment, like a cockfight, my hair exploded all over. "What did you mean by that gesture just now?" The coldness on Shi Shaoqin gradually faded, and even the voice of doubt became much softer. Jane Mo''s hanging heart fell back to her chest in an instant. She looked at Shi Shaoqin waiting for her answer, hissed coldly and turned her face She ignored Shi Shaoqin''s question... She just rubbed her tears with her sleeves. Shi Shaoqin frowned invisibly and disliked Jian Mo''s action. "Make that gesture... To me!" "Rub" for a moment, Jian Mo suddenly looks at Shi Shaoqin Shi Shaoqin said, "why, no?" "It''s not that I can''t..." Jane Mo sneered. "It''s never possible!" "There is no absolute thing in this world..." Shi Shaoqin smiled faintly. Jane Mo said, "so you know this truth..." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes grew deeper and deeper, and he heard Jian Mo sneer, "so there is no eternal cat or absolute mouse in this world!" "..." Shi Shaoqin was slightly stunned and then smiled, "sharp teeth and sharp mouth." Jane Mo snorted coldly, "do you think I''m fighting with you?" "Isn''t it?" Shi Shaoqin''s light voice was filled with a smile. There were tears on Jane Mo''s face, but the corners of her mouth pulled a fake smile, "don''t you want to say around me... What did that gesture just want to express or represent?" If he didn''t answer the rhetorical question, he showed a slight irony. Shi Shaoqin''s handsome face looked the same, but a pair of narrow eyes narrowed slightly invisible But for a moment, the indifferent sight was as deep as the sea! "Interesting..." Shi Shaoqin''s gentle voice came, mixed with a smile. "I found... When you''re awake, it''s much more fun than when you don''t remember anything." Jane Mo chucked the corners of her mouth and was on alert in her reddish eyes. Shi Shaoqin also took back his sight. He looked ahead and his eyes were dark Such darkness seems to tear the madness under the beauty at any time. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen returned to the airport wet and went directly to the hotel next to the airport. The cold clothes retreated. He just grabbed a bath towel and wiped it. He called the hotel service and asked him to send the clothes After putting on his bathrobe, Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone and called out the anonymous message. After reading it for a while, he tried to call back Unfortunately, the line is blocked. Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually deepened and tried to send a text message: Shi Jue Chi? Chapter 706 Looking at the failed text message, Gu Beichen frowned slightly and studied Shi Shaoqin''s itinerary again. It''s November now. For Mogong... It''s not just the proportion of market share next year. There are also drug lords and necessary people who need to be contacted everywhere. Shi Shaoqin needs to see them. After meeting Horst, the next trip Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed gradually, recalling some things he knew in the ink palace. There has always been no fierce competition with the Mafia in Europe and America Then South America is more likely. However, it is obviously not easy for so many countries in South America to guess Shi Shaoqin''s mind. He dropped his hand and Gu Beichen''s sight fell in front The rain continued to fall, and the dark night shrouded the world like a giant beast, making people dull. "Ding Dong!" The door bell interrupted Gu Beichen''s thoughts. He turned and opened the door It was the clothes sent by the hotel service. After he took the money to the other party, he threw the clothes on the bed... Then turned and went to the bathroom. He tried hard to think about Shi Shaoqin''s mind calmly when he was in the neutral position of bathing. Unfortunately... The simple foam in his head lingered, so that he couldn''t calm down at all! There was a bang He saw Gu Beichen''s fist pass through the water sprinkled by the flowers and fall heavily on the wall. Mo Tong was as dark as the night outside. Gu Beichen closed his eyes Even if he knew that Shi Shaoqin would not do any harm to Jian Mo for the time being, knowing was one thing, making him powerless was another. Amsterdam is still shrouded in darkness, and the ink palace has ushered in the dawn The red sunrise rises slowly from the other end of the sea level, with a warm breath. "Some information is blocked." Carney soft temple, some helpless, "I feel... The loophole we just found is actually played by J." Shi juechi looked at Carney and frowned slightly. "This dead child!" Carney spit angrily, "I didn''t beat him for three days, so I went to the beam to uncover the tile..." "Pass the message to Gu Beichen," Shi juechi sighed softly, "at least he can be prepared." Carney turned, "jueshao, do you think..." he paused, as if looking for the right words, "do you think qinshao would let go even if he promised you?" "Intellectually... No!" Shi juechi''s face was calm, "but I can''t think of what he would do!" And Shaoqin are clearly twins, but they are fraternal twins. They don''t look like they don''t say... And they don''t have the same heart as ordinary twins. He never guessed Shaoqin''s real mind... Even if it was him who had not changed at the beginning. "I used to think..." Shi juechi controlled the wheelchair and looked at the rising sun. "Is it because Gu Beichen used to be so sunny, so Shaoqin wanted to tear the beauty apart." "Isn''t it?" Carney raised his eyebrows. "But in the world... There are so many capable people with beautiful sunshine, why..." Shi juechi''s words were slow with a trace of hesitation, "... Is Gu Beichen?!" Carney shrugged and said casually, "I met the right person at the wrong time!" Shi juechi frowned in an instant and looked at Carney "Why are you looking at me like that?" Carney was so fluffy that he couldn''t react. Shi juechi''s eyebrows wrinkled more tightly, "what did you just say make me feel... Something wrong?!" "..." Carney also frowned, thinking about what he said. However, I think I''m right! "Isn''t it?" Carney raised his eyebrows. "How else... How do you explain that Qin Shao is only persistent to Gu Beichen?" Shi Jue Chi''s forehead seemed to be shrouded in melancholy, "your words reminded me of another sentence..." "What?" Carney asked reflexively. Shi Jue Chi converged his sight, looked at the rising sun again, and slowly said, "he likes someone, but... He is the same gender as him!" "..." Carney twitched at the corners of his mouth, "I''ll go... Jue Shao, I''ve got goose bumps when you say that." Shi juechi''s face suddenly became dignified "In other words," Carney''s sure question, "you don''t mean... There''s something wrong with chin Shao''s current orientation?" Shi Jue Chi sighed, "how could it be?" He said softly, but in a positive voice, "once... Something like that happened, how can Shaoqin like men?" Carney didn''t continue to ask They, the old people of Mo palace, know a little about the past... But they are only superficial. What happened to Qin Shao in those years? He has changed from a sunshine boy to such a bloody man now... Now I''m afraid the only thing I know is Jue Shao?! Carney was a little uncertain, but he didn''t delve into it In Mo palace, you should understand the difference between what you should know and what you don''t know... Otherwise, you will feel worse than death at any time. ¡­¡­ Jane Mo sat a little tired and walked around in the cabin. For ordinary airliners, this private luxury airliner does not live up to its word "luxury" All facilities are designed with humanization, which makes the journey more comfortable. However, in the end, the space is limited. In terms of comfort, it is also different from the ground. "Aren''t you going to eat yet?" Shi Shaoqin wants to use the delicious food cooked by the cook on site, which is very leisurely. Jane Mo was not so angry. At that time, her mood fluctuated too much. She hadn''t foolishly let herself completely lose her mind Looking at Shi Shaoqin''s graceful actions, he cut the lamb chops on the plate and put a piece into his mouth. Each action looks like an art. Because Xiaoyan''s month is big, she usually has to eat several meals I have eaten a few fruits since I left Los Angeles. Jane Mo is really hungry! "I''ll take your share..." said Jane mo. Shi Shaoqin smiled, "because I eat, will it be all right?" Jane Mo didn''t speak. "In fact, I can''t understand your psychology..." Shi Shaoqin raised his eyebrow. "You didn''t think that there was a problem with my job, but did I eat something that could restrain the problem in advance?" Jane was stunned, but then said calmly: "however, in terms of probability... Eating your share is higher than the new one, and the safety factor is higher." Shi Shaoqin has put his share aside and motioned Jian Mo to sit down, "but it''s possible that I guessed your psychology, so... What''s wrong is actually just me!" "..." Jian Mo just sat down, picked up his knife and fork, clenched his hand, looked at Shi Shaoqin and said with gnashing teeth, "how can there be such a person you hate in this world Shi Shaoqin not only didn''t get angry, but smiled softly and casually However, such a smile made Jane Mo start to get angry. Shi Shaoqin glanced lightly at the dinner plate. His narrow eyes slightly stirred up an evil radian and slowly looked at Jian Mo, "then... Do you dare to eat?" Chapter 707 Jane Mo clutched the knife and fork in her hand, and her vision was opposite Shi Shaoqin''s feminine vision. After a long confrontation, she suddenly smiled "What you said is quite reasonable!" Jian Mo converged, put down his knife and fork, and handed back the plate to Shi Shaoqin. The smile on Shi Shaoqin''s handsome face remained the same, but it was different in the depths of his eyes. Just when he thought Jane Mo was afraid to eat, he heard her say to the cook, "I want a black pepper steak... Eight points!" Then she looked at Shi Shaoqin again. "You''re right. If you want to do something, you don''t need so much trouble." Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes "Besides, people always eat." Jian Mo calmly raised her eyebrows. "There are endless things to worry about every day... Do I have to die in a state of unwarranted worry first?" The words of rhetorical questions are full of relief In Jane Mo''s pure black pupil, there is no trace of hypocritical impurities. Shi Shaoqin''s smile deepened a lot, and his narrow eyes narrowed slightly. Obviously... He felt comfortable with Jian Mo for a while. A woman can be weak and confused But she knows what she needs to do. She can quickly realize the current situation and make the best judgment at present. It''s not easy! Women are emotional animals. Too often... They are manipulated by emotion. Besides, she is a woman who has just experienced great emotional fluctuations The chef is top-notch. Jian Mo and Gu Beichen have been married to "divorce" and then to marriage for more than six years... It can be regarded as an upper class life. The taste of steak can taste the cook''s craft in one bite. Compared with Shi Shaoqin''s elegance, Jian Mo ate something "barbaric". Of course, there are many intentional ingredients Shi Shaoqin is a person who pursues perfection. It can be seen from the failure of silence on her and then not using it. It''s hard for such people to tolerate the imperfections of people and things around them?! Since she can''t escape, she has to "be with him"... She should be with him, and she also feels good! ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen took a bath and came out, wiping his wet hair with a big towel In the mirror of the dressing table, his actions are reflected... Gu Beichen suddenly stops. Now it''s hard for Mo''er to get pregnant because he likes her long hair... She also keeps her hair. He blew her dry every time she took a bath. Now that he is not around, she needs to do everything by herself With a slight sigh, Gu Beichen converged his eyes, shook off the towel in his hand and went to get dressed. As he walked out, he took his cell phone and began to check Shi Shaoqin''s mind is uncertain now. If the message was really sent by Shi juechi, he can only guess the location. Press the elevator down button and Gu Beichen waits for the elevator. On the small display screen next to the elevator, the local news of the Netherlands is playing As a country with normal circulation of soft drugs, it does not mean that it can really tolerate the entry of a large number of drugs with high purity. Due to the poor harvest of jinsanjiao this year, the supply of drug products in many places is in short supply, so that the soft drug products also rise, and then there are many malignant events. Suddenly Gu Beichen looked at the map with his fingers slightly sluggish, slowly tilted his head and looked at the small display screen "According to the information given by the police, these drug products flow from South America..." the news anchor said simply and sonorously, "the international anti drug police will step up the crackdown on drug products trading. First of all, it will start with this conference... Called ''eye'' by the dark world in Chile!" Later, what did the anchor say? Gu Beichen didn''t listen carefully He just condensed his eagle eyes into a pure light in an instant. When the elevator arrived and there was a ''ding'' sound, he dialed the phone "Book the fastest flight to Santiago..." Gu Beichen said calmly, "I''m at the airport!" "I see..." Xiao Jing answered. After hanging up the phone, he quickly called out the system. Because Gu Beichen is using a false identity now, for the sake of safety, Xiao Jing will handle the whole trip through special channels At the airport, the nearest one to San Diego is two hours later! Plus Shi Shaoqin''s early departure, it is equivalent to another three more than four hours of empty window between them. Such a chase is very angry for Gu Beichen The most important thing is that you never know whether Shi Shaoqin will change his routine on a whim. But now, no matter how, it''s better to have a destination than to be blind "Eh... Uncle, are you still waiting?" The little girl''s voice came, "but I didn''t see the pregnant aunt Dongfang even on several flights!" Gu Beichen glanced at the little girl with soft eyes. "Why are you still here so late?" The little girl fanned her eyelashes and shrugged, "I need to sell a lot of flowers every day..." "Why?" Gu Beichen squatted down and looked at the little girl with perseverance in her eyes. "My father died because of too much soft poison. My mother is in the red light district. Although she can subsidize the family, she can''t maintain the life of me and my brother..." the little girl said frankly, "I want my brother to receive a good education and leave here!" Gu Beichen looked at the little girl with deep eyes. A family was destroyed by poison and needed to face life prematurely... It''s rare to be able to strengthen his faith like this. "You will achieve your wish..." Gu Beichen said. The little girl smiled hopefully, "I think so!" Then she took out a champagne rose from the flower basket, "this is for you. I hope your wife can like it." Gu Beichen took it, looked deeply at the flowers in his hand, nodded with a smile and said, "thank you!" The little girl smiled, shook her head, hooked the flower basket and continued to sell flowers. Gu Beichen squatted in place and didn''t move. He just looked at the back of the little girl... Gradually, his sight became deep. When Mo''er first encountered family mutation, did he use such positive beliefs to grow up step by step enough to attract him? Put the flowers in his nose and sniffed. Gu Beichen''s mouth rarely swings a faint smile from his heart Thank you for your determination, so that I don''t miss such a good you! ¡­¡­ Jane Mo Xu was so hungry that she didn''t feel it when she didn''t eat. As soon as she ate, she immediately felt hungry... She ate a lot of things. "Again..." "Don''t eat!" Shi Shaoqin interrupts Jian Mo''s bath hope to order again. Jane Mo slanted her eyes and listened to Shi Shaoqin''s cold mouth: "you''ve eaten a lot of things and can''t digest..." Jane moo smiled at the corners of her mouth, thought about it, and finally gave up. After a while, the captain''s voice came from the radio, indicating that it would land in half an hour. "What are you doing in San Diego?" Jane Mo asked casually, trying to get a little information. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo and smiled slightly at the corners of his mouth. He saw him speak slowly: "take you to see the meteor shower..." Chapter 708 Jane Mo was stunned at first, and then trembled uncontrollably. She felt that this was a little penetrating. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s reaction, frowned slightly, and his eyes became familiar, "how... It feels scary?" Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "ready to land..." she didn''t answer the question, then got up, went to the original seat and fastened her seat belt. In fact, this aircraft is designed to be very automatic. According to the flight, it will adjust the comfort and adapt to the safety angle during flight Jane Mo doesn''t have to go to her seat, but she just feels that Shao Shi wants to show her the meteor shower. Lei''s her scorched outside and tender inside. When the plane lands, this airport is originally private. Therefore, there is a special parking area for private airliners, and the service is naturally first-class When we arrived at the place, the sky had just darkened for a while, the lights were on, and the airport looked bright. Jane Mo felt that she lived in the night all day, and then kept changing in summer and winter "Qin Shao!" Several people outside, in suits and shoes, saw Shi Shaoqin get off the plane and saluted respectfully. Shi Shaoqin ignored the people, just looked at Jian Mo, and then stepped to a very windy silver gray sports car ahead "I won''t go there," Shi Shaoqin said as he walked. "You can handle the rest." "Isn''t Qin Shao going to show up?" Morson was a little surprised. If you don''t participate in the ''eye'' meeting, you can not come to Santiago... Come and don''t go?! Shi Shaoqin opened the co pilot''s door and looked at Mosen. He didn''t speak, but looked at Jian Mo again. Jane Mo frowned and looked at the car and smiled at the corners of her mouth. "Get in the car!" Shi Shaoqin was a little impatient. Jane Mo frowned more tightly, "the seat is too low, I can''t sit..." The chassis of this sports car is very low. It will be very hard for her to sit for eight months of pregnancy. Shi Shaoqin frowned invisibly. Obviously, he didn''t consider this problem "Change trains in ten minutes!" Shi Shaoqin closed the door and gave orders indifferently. "Yes!" The personnel in San Diego answered immediately and went to prepare. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes fell from Jian Mo''s face to her swollen stomach, and there was a touch of complex emotion across her eyes It''s a kind of doubt that doesn''t consider a new thing, but exists again. Mohsen''s face was calm and indifferent, but when his eyes crossed Jane Mo''s stomach, a touch of darkness disappeared. "You go directly..." Shi Shaoqin said indifferently, "when it''s over, go straight back to the Mo palace." "What about Qin Shao?" Morson frowned. "Do you need to arrange to go back together?" Shi Shaoqin''s eyes suddenly and fiercely looked at morsen. He didn''t speak, but... His vision was like a sharp blade, as if to shoot through him. Mohsen quickly lowered his eyes. "I crossed." The atmosphere became stiff for a time. Jian Mo didn''t speak, but looked at Shi Shaoqin and Mosen indifferently Within ten minutes, a spacious car came. Shi Shaoqin still opened the co driver''s door for Jian Mo very gentlemanly. Compared with the sports car just now, it is obvious that the low-key luxury car makes Jian Mo more comfortable to sit. Jian Mo didn''t know where Shi Shaoqin was taking her. After getting on the bus, she saw someone put the things in the sports car into the trunk, and then Shi Shaoqin got on the bus. Start, leave... Everything is going on in silence. "I''ll take you to wash and change your clothes first!" Shi Shaoqin gave a kind explanation on the way. Jane Mo didn''t answer, but looked at the strange city No matter how prosperous the place is, it''s not as friendly as the place where you grow up. Besides, there''s no one you want here. The car stopped at an extremely luxurious hotel. Shi Shaoqin explained something to the front desk before taking Jian Mo to the room. In the presidential suite, everything is intelligent. In and out, fingerprints and facial scanning are required. In other words... It is impossible for Jian Mo to go out of this room without Shi Shaoqin. "Pervert..." Jane Mo murmured. Perverted people, choose places that are perverted! Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. After looking at it for a while, the corners of his mouth suddenly smiled, "you have three hours to rest. You can choose to continue thinking, or choose to rest." "What do you mean?" Jane Mo doesn''t understand. "Although it''s only midnight here, you haven''t slept for a long time..." Shi Shaoqin raised his eyebrow, "isn''t it?" Jane Mowei frowned and said nothing. After looking at Shi Shaoqin for a while, she turned and entered the bedroom. Jet lag makes her have no concept of time, sadness and tension, which makes her mood unable to relax. After washing, Jane Mo lay on the soft bed and closed her sour eyes... Even if she didn''t feel sleepy, she tried to get herself into sleep. Pregnant people don''t have so many willful times. ¡­¡­ Shen Chu entered the company with elegant and arrogant steps. After entering the office area, he dialed Jane mo "Hello, the subscriber you dialed cannot be connected temporarily. Please redial later!" Shen Chu frowned slightly and dialed again. Still Take a look at all the revised materials of the opera house. Shen Chu looks at the time again. Then he takes something and plans to go to the top floor to find Jian mo. "Sister Chu, the government called and asked when the revised plan would be delivered?" Xiao Yan asked with a telephone microphone in his hand. Shen Chu looked back at Xiao Yan. "I''ll go up and find the team leader to sign now. You can deal with it today." ¡°OK£¡¡± Shen Chu took back his sight, left the design department and went straight to the top floor The quiet space is filled with a dignified atmosphere. Because of the modification of the plan, Shen Chu has been busy for two days As soon as I stepped out of the elevator, I couldn''t help frowning when I rushed to my face. "Secretary Su," Shen Chu saw Susan coming out of the tea room, "has group leader Jane come yet?" Susan clenched her hand with the cup, but said with an impermanent look: "Chen Shao and Mrs. Shao won''t come today. What''s up?" Shen Chu didn''t think much. "The revision plan of the opera house has been completed and needs to be signed..." paused, "is it in the middle of the mountain? I''ll go to find her!" "Chen Shao went on a business trip and took his wife with him..." Susan said with a smile. "Explain before leaving, and Xiao tezhu will take over." Shen Chu was slightly stunned. Obviously, he felt very sudden, but he didn''t think much. He just nodded and asked, "what about... Xiao tezhu?" She raised the folder in her hand. "The government is waiting to file a case." "Leave it to me." Said Susan. Shen Chuwei wondered invisibly, and then handed the folder in his hand to Susan, "thank you!" After a pause, she said, "it needs to be done in the morning. Well, call me and I''ll pick it up." Susan nodded with a smile. Shen Chu took a deep look at Susan, then turned and left However, when she pressed the down button of the elevator, she always felt something was wrong. Chapter 709 The sound of "Ding" crossed, and Shen Chu withdrew his thoughts. Subconsciously, when the elevator door opened, people wanted to go inside However, before he moved, he saw Xiao Jing walking out with his head down. Shen Chu turned slightly. Xiao Jingyu glanced at the figure and raised his eyes to see that it was Shen Chu. He was stunned first. "You came just in time..." Shen Chu said with a smile. Then he looked at Susan who also came forward, took the folder she handed back and said, "it''s you who handle the matter. I''ll send the final decision to the government for revision instructions." Xiao Jing took it, walked to the office and looked at it The amendments have been set, but the government''s projects have always been troublesome, with a large number of approvals and cumbersome. Seeing that all the information was correct, Xiao Jing took out his pen and signed his name. Unlike ordinary special assistance, Xiao Jing was left behind by the emperor, which is equivalent to Gu Beichen This is very clear to the old imperial staff. To put it mildly, someone once said... If Xiao Jing wants to betray, he can take away most of the emperor''s assets and empty out here directly. Because Xiao Jing, who has something to do with Gu Beichen and stays behind, has too much power... Even, many things can directly exercise his rights without Gu Beichen. To put it bluntly... It is equivalent to the ancient times, when the emperor went on a tour and left the prison country! "The rest of the questions that need to be followed up can be discussed by the monk Director..." Xiao Jing closed the document and handed it to Shen Chu. Shen Chu took over and nodded. When he turned to leave, he stopped. "How can Beichen and Jian Mo suddenly leave?" In the company, Shen Chu knows his position very well. On business, he will also call Gu Beichen general manager and Jian Mo group leader At the moment, she shouted so out of sheer personal concern. Xiao Jing looked at Shen Chu and smiled: "who knows?" He shrugged. "One is a pregnant woman, the other is a loyal dog husband centered on pregnant women... Who knows whether they are on a whim or what?" Shen Chu looked at Xiao Jing and smiled. Without asking any more questions, he turned and left Looking at the number of elevators falling, Shen Chu felt more and more puzzled. What kind of person is Jane Mo? She can see clearly how she gets along with her recently Will not be unreasonable, rational and capable... Can make deep friends, will not step on your top at a critical time, such a person who can make friends for the purpose of confidants. Such a person will believe in her on a whim However, regardless of what she said, she didn''t believe it. It was still a big belly trip! What''s more... Beichen can''t travel when Jian Mo is eight months pregnant. The sound of "Ding" came and the elevator reached the floor of the design department. Shen Chu went out... His steps were not slow, but he looked at the line of sight ahead with doubts. Suddenly, she frowned and stopped slowly Suddenly turned around and the corridor was empty. Shen Chu''s eyes crossed with doubts, slowly took back his sight and continued to go to the design department... But he was a little fluffy in his heart. I don''t know why. How does she feel someone behind her?! When I looked back, I still saw no empty figure in the corridor Shen Chu shook his head secretly and felt a little suspicious, so he calmly entered the design department. Just as she had just entered... A man in cleaning company clothes, with a bucket in his hand, leaned from the position of the stairwell He looked up slightly and narrowed his eyes slightly at Shen Chu''s last figure. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen had no expression on his cold, carved face. He closed his eyes slightly and pretended to sleep, but his thin lips were in a straight line. "Santiago, the capital of Chile, is about to arrive," said the flight attendant in a sweet voice on the radio. "Tonight, the Leonid meteor shower will pass over Santiago... Will the meteor shower bring you joy and good wishes while you are tired all the way?" Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes. On the small screen that had not been closed before, the information of Leonid meteor shower was playing. In the night sky, the meteors are so unreal "Husband, I heard there will be a meteor shower next week?" "And then?" "Although our marriage is a contract, appropriate and occasional romance is also a way to enhance revolutionary friendship..." Jane Mo held Gu Beichen''s waist angrily, "don''t you think so?" Gu Beichen looked at the woman who occasionally thought of some ideas to please him. "Meteor, frankly, is meteorite... What''s good?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and directly let go of Gu Beichen, "boring, don''t know romance!" When the words fall, I want to turn around and go upstairs. However, when the talent turned around, Gu Beichen grabbed his wrist and pulled it back, pressing it on the handrail of the stairs "Why?" Jane Mo''s eyes were like silk, and her fingers gently drew a circle on Gu Beichen''s chest. Gu Beichen asked in a dull voice, "what do you say?" Jane Mo smiled bewildered, and without waiting for Gu Beichen to move, she had held her and kissed her thin lips Gu Beichen looked at the meteor shower on the small display screen. The corners of his mouth spread and saw a faint, aftertaste smile. "One day," Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slowly, and his voice whispered softly, "I''ll take you on a walk away trip... I''m not busy, I just want to be with you!" On this day, it didn''t come very slowly But Gu Beichen and Jian Mo used that way... Happy, but with a hint of sadness! ¡­¡­ Jane Mo didn''t sleep well and woke up in more than an hour. Listening to the rustle outside, Jian Mo put on the clothes Shi Shaoqin had prepared and went out "Don''t worry, I''m reporting the rest to you on the phone," said Qin mo He hung up without waiting for the other party to speak. "Let''s go..." Jian Mozhe said nothing and followed Shi Shaoqin out of the room and left the hotel. When reaching the foot of a mountain, Jane Mo frowned and looked in front of her "This is Mount St. daluxi..." Shi Shaoqin loosened his seat belt while opening his mouth. "It''s also called lover''s mountain!" Then he looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and frowned, "what are you doing here?" She resisted the name "lover mountain". "Come and see the meteor shower..." Shi Shaoqin said naturally. "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "really watching the meteor shower?" "Otherwise?" Shi Shaoqin raised his eyebrows, then got out of the car indifferently, and went to the trunk to get the things prepared in advance. Jian morhu lip, unwilling to get off the bus, looked at Shi Shaoqin from the reversing mirror "I haven''t seen the meteor shower with ah Chen yet!" Jane Mo murmured discontentedly, "what kind of meteor shower are you watching on Valentine''s mountain with a pervert?" Chapter 710 Jane Mo sits in the car and doesn''t want to go down She looked at Shi Shaoqin busy there from the reversing mirror and suddenly felt a little unreal. What kind of person is this? Drug lords? commit innumerable murders? Or... Just a pervert?! And such a person, the beauty is so unreal... How many women will it fascinate if it is put in the sun?! "Dong Dong!" Jian Mo was suddenly pulled back to her senses by the sound of knocking on the glass. She looked through the car glass at Shi Shaoqin with light on her back, raised her lips, put down the window and said, "it''s too cold, I''m not feeling well, and I don''t want to go down..." "I''ve prepared something warm..." Shi Shaoqin said calmly. "Of course, you can choose not to get off!" Jane Mo was stunned She didn''t get along much. Apart from her dream like experience in Haibin City, she felt that Shi Shaoqin was used to control and couldn''t compromise so easily. "You can choose between the child and the car!" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was very calm. It seemed that he was talking about something irrelevant. Jane Mo bit her teeth and opened the door without any warning Shi Shaoqin''s action was very casual, and even lightly avoided Jian Mo''s action of suddenly opening the door to bump into him. Without success, Jane Mo feels childish and dying! However, she has no way to vent her emotions. The only thing she can do is some childish behavior. Look at a roll of things on the ground and an incubator. Jane Mo took a deep breath and tried to calm her mood. "Here, put this on!" Shi Shaoqin leaned over and handed Jian Mo a down jacket that was as long as his ankles. Jane Mo didn''t get along with herself, so she put it on after taking it. "Don''t expect me to take those things. I''m pregnant and can''t take them." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were slightly deep, his beautiful corners of his mouth raised a faint smile, and asked lightly, "did Chen say you were childish?" After a pause, he said as if thinking, "or do you have a problem with your IQ?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, and her black pupil was in an indescribable mood in the night. I am so depressed! Jian Mo sighed and said solemnly with a fake smile: "there is a problem with IQ. You''re really right..." Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo unchanged and waited for her next words. "If my IQ is online, I won''t lose my thinking ability by your SMS!" Jane Mo is brooding about it. "Even if I don''t use this way, I have many ways to make you lose your thinking ability..." Shi Shaoqin slightly picked up the tail of his eyebrow, carried the rolled up thing in one hand and the incubator in the other hand, and signaled Jian Mo to go together. "Control the people..." Shi Shaoqin said softly, "it has always been my strength." Jian Mo looks at the mountains that are not high or steep. She has to accompany a pervert to watch the meteor shower in the middle of the night. She''s really tired "You just caught me and worried about the child..." Jian Mo said, suddenly looking at Shi Shaoqin with vigilance. "You won''t do anything to a child, will you?" Shi Shaoqin smiled a little. "Do you think a pervert... Will care whether the other person is a child or an adult?" "Shao Shi!" Jane Mo''s mood was irritated again. Shi Shaoqin glanced at Jian Mo, didn''t speak, and continued to walk up Jian Mo held the railing in his hand and looked at the back of Shi Shaoqin, who was still calm and indifferent when he was carrying heavy things. He was so angry that he gnashed his teeth. Shi Shaoqin took a few steps and found that Jian Mo didn''t follow up and didn''t look back. He just opened his mouth lightly: "I haven''t planned to do anything to Jian Jie for the time being, but it''s only for the time being..." "If I don''t obey, what will you do..." Jane Mo asked sarcastically, "is it?" Shi Shaoqin stopped, paused and turned slowly He looked down at Jian Mo, his narrow eyes narrowed slightly At that moment, looking at those clear eyes with only one purpose, Shi Shaoqin always felt that something had tightened the position of his heart. However, that feeling was only fleeting. It quickly made him disappear before he had time to respond. "Maybe..." Shi Shaoqin replied vaguely, then turned around and continued to walk up. Jane Mo was silent. She took the handrail and walked slowly Santa Lucia mountain is said to be a mountain, but it is actually a small hillside with a fountain and an ancient castle The night was quiet and peaceful. But even if it''s a hillside, it''s a little hard for Jane Mo, who is eight months pregnant. "Why is there no one?" Jane Mo looked around and asked, panting. Shi Shaoqin put down the incubator and calmly unfolded the rolled up pile of things. He was busy there alone, "I closed the mountain." "..." Jane Mo''s uncontrollable twitch at the corner of her mouth, "do rich people like private entertainment very much?" Shi Shaoqin glanced at Jian Mo with some doubts on his face. Jane Mo didn''t explain, but asked, "when is the meteor shower?" "About the early morning..." Shi Shaoqin said, continuing his actions. "This is the best viewing point. I sealed it by taking advantage of some relations between local government and parties." His men paused and explained in a good mood: "there should be a lot of people today in Mount Notre Dame, which is not far from here." Jian Mo watched Shi Shaoqin put a soft cushion on the bench for people to rest, unfold a flexible folding table, and then take out the things in the incubator... Gradually lost consciousness. Every woman has a romantic dream Quiet night, waiting for the meteor shower... And if Shi Shaoqin replaced Gu Beichen, she may die happily. "What?" Shi Shaoqin glanced at Jian Mo and asked softly, "I hope I can become a Chen and watch the meteor shower with you?" Jane Mo snorted coldly and didn''t answer. "In fact, your wish has been achieved..." Shi Shaoqin motioned Jian Mo to sit down. "There was no accident. He should be able to see the meteor shower, which is under the same air." Some of the howling voices were undisguised. Because of this tone, Jane Mo was more and more angry. be ill! Still sick! See others add blocking, this person will be stabbed and excited?! Sitting on a comfortable, warm, cushioned bench, Jian Mo looked at Mo Kong "People like you shouldn''t come to see the meteor shower." Jane Mo came for a long time before she said, "it doesn''t look like you''re an astronomer." Naturally, romance or something should have nothing to do with a drug lord. Shi Shaoqin didn''t answer, but his narrow eyes gradually narrowed... There was a cold light on the bottom of his eyes. Suddenly A meteor shot across the sky. Jane Mo''s eyes suddenly brightened, and then she saw more and more popular passing by quickly Instinctively, she quickly closed her hands, closed her eyes and made a wish "I wish I could stay with her until I grow old..." Gu Beichen said with his hands and his eagle eyes looking at the meteor shower across the ink space. Chapter 711 I wish I could grow old together with ah Chen in this life Jane Mo silently made a wish, slowly opened her eyes, looked at the unreal meteor in the sky, and gradually raised a smile at the corners of her mouth. Even if it is illusory, at this moment... She has only one wish. What can accompany you all your life is never your parents, family or children... But the one around you! Jane Mo''s vision is illusory. The people around her are not what she wants, but... She has him in her heart and Xiaoyan''s company. She is not lonely. Shi Shaoqin tilted his head and stared at Jian Mo deeply from the moment he closed his eyes and made a wish "Rather than deliver your wish to an unrealistic meteorite," Shi Shaoqin opened his lips and said coldly, "it''s better to give it to me!" "No matter how impractical it is, it is also a dream... A wish." Jian Mo didn''t look at Shi Shaoqin. "Give it to you, you will only destroy other people''s dreams!" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, "but at least there is a chance." "That''s such an opportunity..." Jian Mo took back his eyes and looked at Shi Shaoqin, "... Will you give it?" "No!" Shi Shaoqin''s answer was indisputable. Jane Mo smiled, not a fake smile, but a heartfelt smile It seems that I feel very happy that I can guess Shi Shaoqin''s mind. Shi Shaoqin suddenly turned cold and looked back at Mo Kong. A large number of meteors have flashed, and occasionally one or two rapidly shuttle through the ink space "Shao Shi," Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin, "you must be a man with a story!" Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were suddenly cold, and his already cold face was shrouded in frost Jane Mo shivered coldly, then silently shut her mouth and took the thermos cup on the small table to warm her hands. Shao Shi''s character is so strange. She thought... If she could find something, even if she couldn''t escape, she might be useful in the future. Unfortunately, the man said he would change his face. It seems impossible to find out something. "The meteor shower is over. Can we go now?" Jane Mo didn''t want to be alone with him for a minute. It was still at night and there was no one there. "Qin Shao is really in a good mood..." When Jian Mo''s words fell, he heard a soft smiling voice, with a pleasant simplicity. Looking back, I saw a handsome and elegant man holding a woman. At night... The woman''s skin is white and her eyes are soft. The wavy curly hair swings slightly with the light wind, showing a noble elegance. Followed by two men in suits, one has unfolded the folding wheelchair in his hand The man holding the woman gently put her in the wheelchair, then took the blanket from another man''s hand and covered the woman''s knee All these actions are respectful under the rules... But they are soft and full of ambiguous breath. The man got up and came over with a wheelchair Jane Mo saw that there was a placket flower pinned on the man''s suit, which was complex, but the material was very valuable at first sight... It looked like the logo of a family or some organization. "It''s hard for me to make an appointment here." The woman smiled and looked at Jane Mo calmly, nodding slightly. Jane Mo smiled and nodded in response. "I heard..." Shi Shaoqin glanced at the woman lightly, "... Has the Dragon owl returned to England?!" Jian Mo frowned slightly and looked at Shi Shaoqin and the woman in the wheelchair... Why did he drag big brother again?! "Isn''t it your means?" The woman asked with a smile, and her voice was soft and pleasant. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes gradually deepened, "it can be regarded as returning your friendship in those years..." The woman still smiled and looked at Jian Mo, "take other people''s wives and children to watch the meteor shower and ask me to come here again. Won''t you just return the friendship of that year?" "Friendship is gone. Next, of course, I''m talking about business..." Shi Shaoqin looked at the woman. "I don''t trust others. You know the purpose of asking you... I want the European and American market." "Obviously, it''s hard!" The woman raised her eyebrows. "What''s the advantage of me helping you?" "A dragon Owl..." Shi Shaoqin smiled, but there was no temperature. "This benefit is worth all for you." Women are still smiling. Every smile is noble and elegant She didn''t promise Shi Shaoqin, nor did she refuse. She just opened her mouth slowly: "Zhizhi, let''s go!" "Yes, miss!" The man called Zhizhi answered and pushed his wheelchair to the steps. Jian Mo looked at Zhi like this, picked up the woman in the wheelchair again, went down the steps and left her sight "In fact, our main purpose is not to see the meteor shower..." Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin and tried to see something from his face. "You actually came to see this woman!" It''s a question and a certainty Shi Shaoqin got up and looked down at Jian Mo slightly. "It''s not too stupid!" "What are you talking about? Isn''t the telephone more convenient?" Jane Mo wondered, "you really have a gentleman''s demeanor to let a person with inconvenient legs and feet come here." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were slightly deep. "Don''t over trust electronic equipment... No matter how sophisticated the defense is, there are loopholes." Jane Mo also stood up. "What''s the relationship between this woman and the Dragon owl?" "You can''t worry about your own affairs. Do you still have time to take care of others?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, his eyes deep, "let''s go!" Jane Mo frowned. "Don''t you worry about what you say in front of me?" "What do you think I''ll give you a chance to say?" There was a sneer in Shi Shaoqin''s light voice. "..." Jane Mo clenched her hand and clenched her lips. Shi Shaoqin took his spare time to copy his pocket with both hands and looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes: "a Jian Jie," his eyes dropped slightly and fell on her swollen stomach, "one in your stomach... Plus Gu Beichen, I can control all your rebellious psychology." Jane Mo''s hand became tighter and tighter "In this world, people are the most difficult to control, but the easiest..." Shi Shaoqin leaned forward slightly, and Jian Mo subconsciously stepped back. Shi Shaoqin smiled, cold and treacherous: "especially for those who have love... Understand?" His body overflowed with a breath colder than the air, and Jane Mo''s lips had become a line. "You are, Chen is..." Shi Shaoqin''s smile became more and more gloomy. "And the woman just now, too!" ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen stood next to the statue of the virgin, and the eagle''s eyes fell on the people coming and going and discussing the meteor shower... The seemingly calm ink pupil was already turbulent. The mobile phone vibrated. Gu Beichen took out the text message Xiao Jing: the eye meeting will be held tomorrow. Today there will be a reception for people from all over the world. Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually understand that Shi Shaoqin has half the chance not to go to the eye meeting What''s the purpose of the remaining half? Gu Beichen dropped his hand and pressed out his mobile phone. The eagle''s eyes fell in front and narrowed slightly Chasing him is too passive! Chapter 712 In the afternoon in Los Angeles, the sun is shining brightly. It shines into the ward through the glass window. It is warm and makes people feel a little lazy. "There''s no problem..." Li Yunze took the stethoscope, looked at Chu Zixiao and said with a smile, "you can leave the hospital." "Yunze, hard work." Gu CI smiled and thanked. Li Yunze shook his head, "I should..." "I''ll go through the formalities first." Gu CI looked at Chu Zixiao. "Your father should be finished. Go back later and take good luck." Chu Zixiao nodded with a smile and didn''t say anything. After Gu CI left the ward, Li Yunze fished a stool and sat down, "what do you want to ask?" "Mo Mo......" Chu Zixiao said faintly, "how are you?" He hasn''t been here since the last time he woke up and Momo said those "heartless" words to him. He tried to call her several times, but in the end, he held back. "If your withdrawal can reduce her psychological burden, it should be good..." Li Yunze shrugged and then looked at Chu Zixiao deeply. "Zixiao, in fact, between you... You are the key." Chu Zixiao pulled it off with self mockery "Beichen cares about you, and Jian Mo doesn''t want your nephew and uncle to fall apart. In the final analysis, it''s all here with you..." said Li Yunze. "Don''t you let yourself go, don''t you suffer?" Chu Zixiao sighed and frowned. "Beichen is the person you admire most. How can you say that Jian Mo once had a relationship with you? It''s better for them to get together than for you to give Jian Mo to irrelevant people... It''s much better, isn''t it?" Li Yunze asked. After Chu Zixiao was silent for a while, he slowly said, "if you don''t let go, you won''t wake up..." Li Yunze smiled, got up and patted Chu Zixiao on the shoulder. "There are many scenery on the road. It''s most important to find the most suitable one to stop..." he put his arms around his chest. "If you can think of it, it''s the best." "Why don''t you make an appointment for a drink?" "I''m afraid not for the time being..." Chu Zixiao frowned, "what''s the matter?" "Beichen and Jian Mo are not in Los Angeles for the time being. Come back!" Li Yunze was ready to leave. When he arrived at the door of the ward, he suddenly remembered something and asked, "I heard Beichen mention that you took over a case before. There is a key figure about the cause of Jane Mo''s father''s death?" "Yes!" Li Yunze''s evil spirit picked his eyes and tail, "if this thing can be used as your blessing to Jian Mo and Beichen, maybe it can''t be better." Then Li Yunze took a deep look at Chu Zixiao, turned and left the ward Although aunt Gu personally admitted what happened in those years, it should not be so simple. Although Jian Mo understands that the gratitude and resentment of the previous generation should not be borne by the next generation, it is a thorny event in the end If it could be clear, there would be nothing to worry about between her and Beichen. Of course, if the mistake is really caused by Aunt Gu, it can only be a thorn in their world Li Yunze suddenly stopped, slightly tilted his head and looked at Zhang Nian, who was cleaning up the medicine bottles at the nurse station, but frequently looked at Chu Zixiao''s ward. He looked back at the position of the ward and looked at Zhang Nian Zhang Nian felt his sight, and as he looked... He looked at Li Yunze. She was'' cluttering ''in her heart and her lips, "Li Shao..." "Think it over for yourself," Li Yunze said endlessly. "You''ll work very hard." He didn''t say anything more and turned away from the VIP floor. Zhang Nian looked at Li Yunze''s back and drooped her shoulders bitterly "Xiao Nian, what did Li Shao just mean?" A nurse asked gossip. Zhang Nian looked at the nurse, pulled the corners of her mouth and shook her head, "I don''t know..." The nurse glanced. "Xiaonian, do you know Li Shao privately?" "How is it possible..." Zhang Nian hurriedly arranged the medicine into the cart. "I''ll send the medicine." The nurse looked at Zhang Nian and hurried away. She turned her mouth and whispered to another nurse, "just know each other. What else do you wear?" Another nurse glanced at the talking nurse and looked at Zhang Nian''s back. She smiled and didn''t speak ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen booked a hotel in the center of the holy land of Goya. With the flight and worry, Junyan looked a little tired. The night is already very deep, and even the originally noisy city has become quiet. In the news broadcast back, there are reports of meteor shower at night, but... The TV is silent, and only the picture is flashing. Gu Beichen stood in front of the window, his bathrobe a little loose The hand holding the water cup clenched slightly, maybe too hard, and the knuckles turned white. According to the report, Mount St. dalucci is the best place to watch the meteor shower tonight. However, for some reasons, the government imposed martial law there that night, so that many astronomers can''t get the best location The light set off the back of Weian and showed loneliness. The silent report also let Gu Beichen miss the opportunity to face Shi Shaoqin again. Gu Beichen raised his hand and drank water He''s waiting, waiting for an opportunity. He is not interested in the game of chasing. Only by seizing the initiative can he have a chance to speak. When the "buzzing" mobile phone vibrated, Gu Beichen turned indifferently, put down the cup and picked up the mobile phone It''s Chen Yu! "Chen''s goods have been cut off..." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, and Chen Yu had hurried to say. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, "the police are still on the road?" "Police!" Chen Lin said in a voice, "it''s unscientific..." "Indeed..." Gu Beichen Mo Tong became familiar with it. Chen Zhaobai gives Mo''er to Shi Shaoqin, although he doesn''t understand why Shi Shaoqin wants to make such a big circle However, since so much has been done, there can be no purpose. At least the Chen family should be safe this time... But in the end, they were intercepted by the police. Then there is only one end People on the road thought that the Chen family lied, and the police would make a fatal attack on the Chen family... Needless to think, soon, the Chen family that once dominated the party will fall down quickly. "It''s not Shi Shaoqin who offered sacrifices to the Chen family," Gu Beichen said quietly. "That''s why some people in the Chen family want the Chen family to perish." And he wants to use the Chen family to go to Mo palace and other things about Shi Shaoqin. Obviously... This road is not working. ¡­¡­ Jian Mo''s head was a little dizzy. She watched the car stop. She was powerless to send her seat belt and wanted to get off Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo deeply and frowned slightly, "do you want to call a doctor for you?" Jane Mo got out of the car and ignored Shi Shaoqin. Tired and the night wind blowing, I just didn''t feel it. When I came back, I felt a little dizzy when I got hot in the car. Shi Shaoqin got out of the car with a deep condensation of Jianmo. At the right time... The mobile phone vibrated. Throw the key to the parking staff. While he answers the phone, he keeps up with Jane mo Listening to the report from the person on the other side of the phone, Shi Shaoqin flashed an evil smile around the corner of his mouth. While hanging up the phone, he looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes and said, "he is also in this hotel..." Chapter 713 "Who?" Jane Mo was dizzy and didn''t react. Shi Shaoqin''s smile deepened a little, and his eyes were full of waiting under banter. Sure enough Jane Mo''s eyes suddenly widened, and her poor spirit suddenly disappeared, "you mean ah Chen?" Shi Shaoqin slightly raised his eyebrows and didn''t speak. Jane Mo''s nose suddenly became sour, and her breathing was a little short... Her hand holding her waist gently clenched and touched the corner of her mouth. "Let''s go..." Shi Shaoqin said calmly. Jane Mo didn''t move, but her mouth was tighter. Shi Shaoqin didn''t stop. He looked back at Jian Mo and said leisurely, "do you think I''ll let you see him?" He smiled sarcastically at the corners of his mouth, "or... I''ll let him see you?" Two rhetorical questions made Jian Mo''s breath suffocate at once. "What do you want?" Jane Morse was really fed up. "If your purpose is me, is it necessary to play with him like this?" She asked gnashing her teeth, "if your purpose is ah Chen, is it necessary to hide all the time?" Shi Shaoqin stopped, turned and looked at the angry Jian Mo, "hide?" He said softly, then his eyes became deep, "there is no one in this world that I need to hide." When the words fell, Shi Shaoqin''s mouth overflowed with a treacherous smile. That smile was like Satan''s evil charm... Showing the tyranny of controlling everything. Turning around, he ignored Jane Mo and walked to the elevator Jane Mo didn''t move. She still stared at Shi Shaoqin''s back, and the anger in her eyes burned. "Miss, please!" When the indisputable voice came, Jane Mo found that there were two men in suits around her. Jian Mo looks at the two people. If she asks Shaoshi to wait any longer, they will be rude directly She looked at Shi Shaoqin, who was pressing the elevator and waiting for her, and secretly clenched her teeth. She could only walk over there However, the slow pace is about to compare with the snail. The position of the heart was so blocked that Jian Mo was almost unable to breathe. She stood in the elevator and watched Shi Shaoqin loosen the open key. The sound of "Ding" came just as the elevator was about to close. Jian Mo''s reflective hand stretched out to stop the momentum of the elevator closing. The sound of "hissing" came, and Jane Mo''s hand was caught by the elevator door and shook. Just when the elevator door opened again, he hurried out and looked at the elevator arriving on one side A tall man came out of the elevator Unfortunately, Jian Mo didn''t wait for a dog blood plot... The man wasn''t Gu Beichen! It''s not all on TV. Did you miss the two people''s elevator one in and one out? Why isn''t ah Chen coming out of the elevator With the loss of Jane Mo''s face, she had some uncomfortable body and felt more and more uncomfortable. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo with leisure. He was not in a hurry. He pressed the open button again and waited. After a full two minutes, Jane Mo turned into the elevator with a lost mood Looking at the rising number, Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth Can she only rely on such a weak chance to comfort herself and miss him now? Ah Chen Do you know that you and I are actually in the same hotel?! Gu Beichen opened the red wine, poured himself a glass, and went to the window. Raise your glass and sip The mellow fragrance at the entrance spread astringently through the taste buds, and Gu Beichen sighed. The vibration of "buzzing" came. Gu Beichen looked back and turned to get his cell phone. Looking at the caller ID, Gu Beichen''s eyes became softer Then he put it in his ear. While a faint smile overflowed from his thin lips, he heard Jane Jie''s voice on the phone: "Daddy, uncle wants me to play with him in his upcoming album. Do you think it''s ok?" "Ensemble?" Gu Beichen said softly, and then asked, "what do you think?" Now Mo''er has become Su Zhenqi''s daughter. It can be said that Xiao Jie is also the grandson of the Su family Su Junli''s move made it clear that he wanted to pull Xiaojie to the field of music. "I''m ok!" Jian Jie said with some indifference, "after all, I taught it myself..." After a pause, the little guy was obviously a little tangled, "but I want to hear your opinion." "Starting point?" Gu Beichen put down his wine glass and sat down on the sofa. Jian Jie sits on the stone steps, watching Xiao Yi pester him one by one. He doesn''t know what he''s doing. "Mommy is now the daughter of the Su family. It''s natural that Grandpa wants to develop me..." Jane Jie smiled cunningly. "However, if daddy wants me to stand on your side, of course, I''m the first consideration." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and the fatigue of the fundus of his eyes gradually loosened Xiao Jie is very smart. He even knows his life plan at a very young age. Such a child is sometimes too distressing. The maturity of his mind will make him lose a lot of childhood fun Maybe this is the difference between genius and ordinary people?! "What do you want?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer the question and threw the question to Jian Jie again. Jane Jie frowned and was dissatisfied. "Can''t Daddy give me some advice?" "Now that you have chosen to think for yourself, you need to choose your own way..." Gu Beichen youyou said, "you understand the responsibility, but interest is also very important." Jane Jie smiled. "Won''t Daddy regret it?" His black eyes twinkled like stars, "maybe you''ll lose a successor!" Gu Beichen smiled. That smile spread to the bottom of his eyes in an instant. "As a father, I just hope you can grow up happily..." "In fact, interest and responsibility can coexist!" Jian Jie smiled. In the sun, Meng Meng''s face was full of vitality like a flower. Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually deepened. After chatting with Jian Jie for a while, he hung up the phone. He didn''t tell Jian Jie that Jian Mo was taken away by Shi Shaoqin. He experienced the pain of "losing" his mommy once. How can he bear to worry his son?! The night in the holy land of Goya is quiet and peaceful. Jian Mo slept very restlessly. There were fragments in her dream... Some fragments about Gu Beichen were the same as rewinding. In the gloomy weather, there is a lot of traffic on the roads in Los Angeles. The people at work are in a hurry. They don''t have time to pay attention to the people around them. Has something broken down. Jian Mo shuttled through the work crowd like a walking corpse. Several times, she almost hit the railing because she was absent-minded. Someone glanced at her and hurried away with cold eyes Suddenly, something in front blocked her sight, and Jane Mo slowly looked up The sight slowly moved up and finally fell on the man''s handsome face. Chapter 714 The man''s cold face is like a carved handicraft, with an indifferent atmosphere shrouded above, showing the arrogance under alienation. Jane Mo looked at the man numbly and pulled at the corners of her mouth. But I don''t know whether it''s the courtesy of instinct, or whether it''s because I can still see such a pleasant man under too much sadness, and I think there''s still a little dawn in the world. With a wooden smile, Jian Mo slowly converged his smile. Then, he leaned indifferently and wanted to leave over the man The world is gray for her at the moment. Father''s death, mother''s unconsciousness The whereabouts of her father, her brother and even her company were unknown. Originally a peaceful home, it collapsed overnight! Her world seems to have collapsed Jane Mo''s nose is very sour, but her eyes are dry and there are no tears. The car shuttles around the road, and the roaring engine sound can''t wake up Jane Mo''s world She seems to be looking for an exit, an exit that can let herself live without giving up. However, she was originally carefree. Suddenly, no one in the whole world supported her Her thin shoulders are almost out of support. "Bang!" Some painful look on Jane Mo''s face spread She hung her eyes and didn''t look at the road. She hit the trash can. The pink and white corners of her clothes are stained with stains, just like her original pure world, which can no longer be wiped clean Some people look at Jian Mo, but they just look at the busy urban life, so that they have no time to stop. Jian Mo sighed, turned the route, went to the small flower bed on the roadside... Found a flower tree enough to block the morning light and passers-by''s line of sight and sat down. The faint fragrance lingers in the nose, and Jian Mo looks at the front without focus She doesn''t have time to mourn the first inexplicable loss. Her mother is in the hospital. Although the debt collectors sympathize with her, they can''t erase the debt because of sympathy How can she get through this dilemma? A gust of wind blew, sending the fragrance of flowers. At the same time, there were old leaves falling on the ground Jane Mo sighed again, lowered her eyes, and fell on the place just soiled by the garbage can. "Wow... Wow..." The wind blew the leaflets thrown away on the ground, and the sound of "clattering" was particularly loud in empty thoughts. Jian Mo subconsciously looked, her eyes were lax Suddenly, she looked at the title on the paper and her pupils widened suddenly. Leaning over to pick it up, I saw that it said "surrogate pregnant mother". It was only with the help of the mother to conceive the child. Once the child was implanted, there would be a reward of nearly six figures, and there would be a reward of more than six figures after safe birth! Jane Mo would never believe such a small advertisement if it were put in peacetime However, when people are in a desperate situation, even if it is a straw, even if it can''t support buoyancy at all, it will bring hope to people Jane Mo chuckled her lips. Her face, which was full of vitality, was tired. Holding the hand of the small advertisement, I clenched it tightly Finally, I took out my mobile phone and trembled one by one to dial the phone numbers on the small advertisement. "You''re short of money?" A low and magnetic voice came from behind and above, "is it urgent, or just want money?" Jane Mo suddenly turned back, and the mobile phone fell to the ground because of fear Instinctively, she pinned the paper of the small advertisement behind her, and her face turned red... But she stared stubbornly. With the morning light on her back, Jane Mo couldn''t see the man''s face clearly, but vaguely, she could see an outline. The man looked at Jane Mo''s eyes, and his eyes were slightly deep, waiting for her answer. Jian Mo''s hands clenched tighter on her back, and her face was getting hotter and hotter. He just asked like that. He must have seen a small advertisement "I want money!" Jane Mo secretly gritted her teeth. She didn''t know whether it was self abandonment or something. She got up and said, "love money doesn''t matter to you!" Then she was slightly stunned. She didn''t think... This man was the one she almost bumped into just now. "How much?" The man spoke indifferently. "Five million!" Jane Mo casually said a number, but her eyes unconsciously showed despair. "Good!" "Huh?" Jane was stunned. The man Mo Tong looked at her deeply, "I don''t need a surrogate, just a wife..." His voice said without tone: "I''ll give you five million yuan. I''ll bear all the needs of my marriage and give you twenty thousand yuan a month." Jane Mo''s eyes widened, looking at the man as a silly fork "Are you kidding?" "I don''t joke with strangers..." the man said coldly. Jane Mo''s lips, still holding a small advertisement in her hand Wouldn''t it be better for her to be a wife to others if she could be a surrogate? "I have to pay first!" Jane Mo said firmly with her eyes. "Yes!" The man answered, then took out the check, brushed down the number and handed it to Jian mo. Jane Mo took it and twitched at the corners of her mouth. There was a sense of unreality that pie fell from the sky. "This check can''t be... A bad check?" "You can withdraw it first," the man said with no superfluous expression on his cold face. "Contact me tomorrow morning..." With that, he pulled Jian Mo, still holding the hand of the small advertisement, pulled off the paper, and then wrote the phone number in the palm of her hand... And the name! The man just walked away... Just stared at her deeply. Jane Mo fanned her eyelashes and looked at the man''s back. "Aren''t you afraid I''m a liar?" The man turned back and smiled with a smile on his thin lips, "dare you lie to me... I promise you will be more down than you are now!" Light words, with the arrogance of the world, can not be ignored. "Spend so much money to buy a wife..." Jane''s brain circuit crashed. "You can''t be... Gay?" The man frowned slightly and faintly, and still opened his mouth indifferently: "if you marry me, don''t you know?" The voice of light Yi fell, and the eagle''s eyes looked deeply at Jian Mo, and then... He left without stopping. Until the man''s back disappeared, Jane Mo slowly looked down at the number and name in the palm of her hand "Gu Beichen..." Jian Mo whispered, then opened his eyes, opened his mouth slightly, and shouted in surprise, "Gu Beichen?!" Jane Mo will never forget that day. Gu Beichen appeared in front of her like the God of heaven No matter for what reason, having a man in front of you at your most difficult time... Always means different to you. Jane Mo''s mouth overflowed with a sweet smile. In her sleep, that smile was simply charming Shi Shaoqin stood by the bed and forgot what he wanted to do. In this way, he looked at the enigmatic smile around Jane Mo''s mouth, and gradually his sight became deep. Jane Mo''s eyelashes trembled slightly, and it was a little wet Shi Shaoqin''s eyes became deep and fierce. At the moment when Jian Mo opened his eyes with a smile in his mouth and wet eyes, he slowly asked, "how about arranging you to meet Chen?" Chapter 715 Jian Mo''s eyes are moist. Looking at Shi Shaoqin, the light of the wall lamp is not enough for her to see his face Even, because she was moved in the dream, she didn''t hear what Shi Shaoqin said at all. She was just stunned, her eyes were lax, and didn''t look at him with a little focus. "The first time I saw him, I used the most embarrassed look..." Jian Mo said gently. "At that time, I really didn''t think so much. I just wanted money, and he appeared in front of me." Shi Shaoqin frowned, as if he was angry that Jian Mo ignored his words It''s better to say this to Jane Mo suddenly. I don''t understand. "Women are the most persistent animals, but they are also the most fickle..." Jane Mo''s smile at the corners of her mouth is still that kind of fan like smile. "I loved someone before, but because he appeared when I needed help most, so I loved..." Shi Shaoqin''s eyebrows were already frowning tightly, as if he were a little strange to Jian Mo at this moment. "Shao Shi, you don''t know..." Jian Mo slowly sat up and leaned against his back. "Later, when I knew a lot of things, I was more grateful... He noticed me and chose me that day." "He just needs a wife," said Shi Shaoqin coldly. "He just takes back the emperor''s shares from his second uncle." Jian Mo glared at Shi Shaoqin fiercely, "I''m short of money, he''s short of wife... We''re mutually beneficial." "..." Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, "I think you''re looking for an excuse to make yourself comfortable." Jian Mo was annoyed. "If you don''t let me see people, you can''t let me dream about him. I love him. How do you love him? Can you control it?" Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian mo. the woman had just returned to a confused look, and in an instant, she looked like she was blown up. "I just said, let you see him..." Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "you fell into your own memory and ignored it." "Can you be so kind?" Jane Mo tilted her head and snorted coldly, "I hope for you. I might as well spend that time thinking about ah Chen." One side of Shi Shaoqin''s pretty mouth was slightly hooked, revealing a deep smile, "learn to be smart..." Jane Mo snorted coldly and was annoyed that she woke up so soon. She still remembers that when she saw the name in the palm of her hand, she didn''t verify the authenticity of the check If that person really is Gu Beichen, five million is not worth mentioning to him at all. I paid my mother''s medical expenses and some people''s money That night, she called Gu Beichen. That night, she was tossed head to toe by Susan and Xiao Jing all night. When the gloomy next day came, she and Gu Beichen held a wedding with only a few onlookers in grandma Gu''s villa In the evening, I lived in lanze garden. There were marriage contracts and red marriage certificates on the table. Jane Mo was suddenly stunned, and the corners of her mouth fell. She whispered with some dissatisfaction: "the photos on the marriage certificate are still synthetic..." "Huh?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t hear what Jian Mo said clearly. He stared and said softly. Jane Mo looked at him. "It''s impolite to enter the lady''s bedroom casually..." she sneered. "It''s rare that you can stain yourself as a person who pursues perfection." "On the seashore, I will enter your room every night..." Shi Shaoqin said casually. "Why, it''s too late to worry about it now?" "..." Jane Mo gritted her teeth, "Why are you so annoying..." Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s angry look, and the smile on the corners of his mouth obviously had some temperature. "You''re so open, you really challenge my patience all the time." When someone catches a weakness, there is often no hardness Jane Mo is! "Take you to breakfast..." Shi Shaoqin glanced at the already bright sky and turned out of the bedroom. When the door was closed again, Shi Shaoqin suddenly frowned What was he doing in there?! Puzzled, Shi Shaoqin unknowingly hooked up a seeming smile Whatever he does?! Shi Shaoqin calmly went to the living room, picked up the landline and dialed the phone at the front desk. In a cold voice, he ordered without any emotion: "leave the charm, I''ll go down and have breakfast." "OK!" A genial voice from the hotel front desk came over the phone, "do you need a diaphragm?" "Yes!" Shi Shaoqin answered and hung up. Look at the rising morning light in the East. A touch of red of the rising sun tore the thick clouds and lazily projected on the city of Santiago Shi Shaoqin''s eyes gradually became deep, and suddenly opened again when he narrowed slightly. He took his cell phone and put a funny smile on the corner of his beautiful mouth. That smile was stiff in the corner of his mouth and didn''t reach the bottom of his eyes. Slender fingers on the screen free, a text message, sent out "Buzzing!" The sound of mobile phone vibration came, and Gu Beichen suddenly opened his eyes. Take the cell phone, cross the text message Anonymous: see you at the charm restaurant of the hotel at 8 a.m! Gu Beichen''s eyes suddenly gathered, and eagle''s eyes looked at the message deeply... Without any thinking, he had determined that it was sent by Shi Shaoqin. Not without thinking... Shi Shaoqin and Mo''er are in this hotel. For a person who pursues perfection to morbid, the hotel in San Diego is the most suitable for him. I didn''t look for it or check it. I just didn''t want to catch Shi Shaoqin because he was in urgent need of him Mo''er needs to rest, at least in a comfortable environment. ¡­¡­ It was already 7:30 when Jian Mo moped up and chirped. She walked out of the bedroom and saw Shi Shaoqin standing in front of the window The early sun shone orange through the clean glass window and hit him like a layer of blurred light. Perfect body shape, exquisite side face In the sun, she lost her mind all at once. Shi Shaoqin turned slowly, and the sun spread slowly on his handsome and extraordinary face He was so quietly bathed in the sun, looking at his Jane mo. For a moment, he had unrealistic hope and let time freeze at that moment. But why is there such hope... Shi Shaoqin didn''t think or resisted to think. Jian Mo took back his sight, and Shi Shaoqin came quietly almost at the same time They left the suite and went to the hotel restaurant. The melodious piano music came slowly, which turned out to be the repertoire of Su Junli''s concert tour this year. Jian Mo was slightly stunned and looked at Shi Shaoqin "The first morning gift," Shi Shaoqin smiled. "There''s another one later." Jian Mo looks at Shi Shaoqin with some vigilance. When he does something that makes you comfortable, he will make you uncomfortable later. "Second?" Jane Mo said softly Shi Shaoqin motioned to the side, and Jian Mo looked with his eyes Behind the clean glass, the waiter led Gu Beichen into the restaurant Jane Mo burst into surprise in her eyes. She took an urgent step forward and shouted, "ah Chen -" Chapter 716 At eight o''clock in the morning, Gu Beichen appeared in the restaurant called "charm" on time. Except for the waiter, the whole restaurant was empty and everything looked treacherous. Gu Beichen is surrounded everywhere. The mirror reflection design shows the ups and downs under the cold, and the hardness everywhere makes people feel suffocated. He used to study architectural design. Although he didn''t develop in this field, he still saw through the design here at a glance and showed his bold personality There was nothing, just... Shi Shaoqin asked him to have breakfast here?! Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and his cold face was so indifferent that a pair of ink pupils were calm and could not see a little emotion. "Please!" The waiter smiled and led Gu Beichen, "Qin Shao will arrive later." Gu Beichen sat down in his seat, facing a tan mirror of the whole wall The empty restaurant gave him a sense of instant vision of eating by himself and himself. Jane Mo patted the glass. She tried to shout Gu Beichen''s name, but the people outside the glass seemed not to see her or hear her cry. "Ah Chen... Ah Chen..." Jian Mo was anxious and wanted to break the glass directly. "This is a special tempered glass," Shi Shaoqin kindly explained. "Even the desert eagle needs to be within five meters to shoot through..." What ghost is the desert eagle? Where does Jane Mo care? She stamped her foot and wanted to leave the restaurant She has heard that there is a kind of glass that can be seen here and there, but you can''t be seen there. "Breakfast is ready..." Shi Shaoqin didn''t move, but spoke slowly. "If I were you, I wouldn''t be so impulsive." Jane Mo suddenly stopped and looked at Shi Shaoqin, gnashing her teeth "It''s no joke to show you to see him!" Shi Shaoqin smiled, "but just look..." then he motioned to the waiter in the restaurant and said, "you eat here obediently. Remember, don''t try to do anything..." Jian Mo Chuo''s lips and listened to Shi Shaoqin speak slowly, "otherwise... You can''t bear the consequences." Shi Shaoqin''s long narrow eyes stared at Jian Mo deeply. Without saying anything, he turned and walked outside the restaurant When he left, he saw two men in black suits standing at the door and closing the door of the restaurant. Jane Mo closed her eyes and took a deep breath. She tilted her head and looked at the glass window again When she walked over, she lay on the ground and looked at Gu Beichen At this moment, she felt like a fly lying on the glass... She could see everything, but she couldn''t fly out! Chen, I''m here, I''m here... Can you feel it? Jane Mo''s black pupil looked at Gu Beichen with anxiety and miss. Gradually, her teeth bit her lower lip At the right time, Gu Beichen seems to have perception. The originally slightly restrained eagle eyes slowly condensed, and the line of sight was more accurate to look at somewhere in the mirror Jane Mo looked at him and knew he couldn''t see himself, but at that moment, she just felt that he was looking at her! Hands, gently moving on the glass, made some harsh sounds. "Miss, breakfast is ready for you!" Jian Mo didn''t seem to hear it. She just lay on the glass and looked at Gu Beichen The furthest distance in the world is... I''m right in front of you, but you can''t see me! Shi Shaoqin slowly entered Gu Beichen''s restaurant with his hands copying his pockets Gu Beichen looked sideways and looked up at Shi Shaoqin. A cold, a cold But at that moment, the electric light, flint and the air of the whole restaurant seemed to be melted into a net, suffocating. Meet again, but almost half a year apart "Mo''er is right behind the mirror, isn''t he?" Yes, but yes! "Yes!" Shi Shaoqin smiled strangely and didn''t hide it. Gu Beichen didn''t move, even calm, without any emotional fluctuations. His performance obviously disappointed Shi Shaoqin. "Shaoqin, your patience is not as good as before..." Gu Beichen slowly opened his mouth, and his voice was cold. Shi Shaoqin sat down opposite Gu Beichen, "Oh?" He said softly, "tell me, why?" "I was going to come to you after Xiaoyan was born..." Gu Beichen said calmly, "but you can''t wait for three or four months!" "How can a simple foam compare with two people?" Shi Shaoqin smiled. His smile was cold and cold. "Do you think so?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes suddenly gathered, and two sharp lights crossed Shi Shaoqin like a knife Shi Shaoqin''s handsome face was filled with a shallow smile. "You know my conditions... Agree. During your completion, I can ensure the safety of her and her baby!" "Believe you?" Gu Beichen sneered, "am I not naive?" "You can''t believe it..." Shi Shaoqin''s smile widened a little, "then... I have to destroy Jian Mo!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slowly, and a pair of ink pupils condensed into a black fog. Looking at Shi Shaoqin... On his cold, carved face, he was so indifferent. "Back then, you didn''t have any concerns..." Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "I said at the beginning that one day, I will let you understand that there are some things you can''t escape!" Gu Beichen didn''t speak. "This is life..." Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "how can you change it?!" "Don''t charge your fate on me," Gu Beichen sneered. "Shaoqin, even if I''m with you in hell? You still don''t understand why people live...!" Shi Shaoqin laughed coldly. "I don''t need to know..." his eyes were sharp and evil. "As long as I don''t like what I see, I''ll eliminate it, won''t I?" In this world, those who have the right to speak are often those who stand on the spire! "Don''t try to make use of your time to come to the world for two months," said Chi Shao Jue Gu Beichen, deep in the ink pupil, gradually glowed with cold light "If you don''t do it..." Shi Shaoqin said slowly, "I''ll sacrifice the child in Jian Mo''s belly. And next..." he narrowed his narrow eyes coldly, "I''ll cut Jian Jie!" If you are bloodthirsty, the waiter has brought up their breakfast "Chen," Shi Shaoqin took his coffee and drank, "don''t use the previous method... Your death won''t threaten me." He smiled and smiled immeasurably. "Don''t try to work hard with me, you know... Even if I lose, I will let Jane Mo die in front of you first!" "I won''t work hard with you," Gu Beichen said with a sarcastic arc. "If I die, how can I protect her?" Chapter 717 Shi Shaoqin and Gu Beichen looked at each other. At the right time, they narrowed at the same time, and there was a sharp shot from the bottom of their eyes The waiter put down the meal because they spoke Chinese. The waiter didn''t know what they were talking about. I just feel that the atmosphere is suddenly freezing, and I can''t breathe. "Why," Shi Shaoqin smiled, "do you want to try to take Jian Mo away from me?" Gu Beichen looked at Shi Shaoqin calmly, "do you think I will sit and wait to die?" Shi Shaoqin picked up the coffee and took a sip. When the bitterness of the black coffee spread to his taste buds and crossed his throat, he saw it well, but said with a smile: "you''ve been afraid to rush forward. Aren''t you... Worried?" He once thought that even if Chen left the Mo palace, he would still go back after three inhuman months Because, how could the world tolerate such a man who climbed out of hell?! But... He impressed him. He not only stood up, but also got rid of the shadow of the past How can he tolerate these?! Jian Mo was excited at the beginning, and finally turned into looking at Gu Beichen behind the special glass silently Her world, her vision, there is no other, only one Gu Beichen! In the past, I always felt that getting along with and meeting each other, and even slowly falling in love was a natural thing But now she knows that everything is so far away under such a distance. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo suddenly stung her nose, "husband!" Jane Mo bit her lips to keep the moisture in her eyes from gathering more and more Ah Chen is there to face Shao Shi alone. She has been capricious once. Now... What she has to do is to protect herself, protect Xiao Yan, and wait for him. Hands, gradually holding up The ring of the ring is put in the palm of the hand and feels a little tingling. He and she are not separated Heart together, in this world, what can make them separate?! The atmosphere here is vaguely full of tenacity under sadness. On the other side of special glass, the atmosphere is more and more dignified Dignified, the waiters who didn''t know where they were in the restaurant held their breath one by one, and the atmosphere didn''t dare to breathe. "Shaoqin..." For a long time, Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and slowly opened his mouth, breaking the turbulent undercurrent under the confrontation. "I''ll prove to you... No one in hell can''t get out." Gentle words are low and have a awe inspiring momentum again, very light, very light... But people can''t help but look directly at his words. Shi Shaoqin put a sneer on the corner of his mouth. Under his long and narrow eyes, there was a dull hostility. "Can''t get out..." Gu Beichen continued, "it''s not that there''s no way, but that you don''t want to!" "Don''t tell me this..." Shi Shaoqin''s gorgeous face has been shrouded in a haze. "Chen, I haven''t done those things for so many years... Just because I want to leave it to you... Let you know how many things you can''t avoid!" There was no expression on Gu Beichen''s cold face, as if he was used to Shi Shaoqin''s persistence. "Shaoqin..." Gu Beichen shouted softly, but there was no temperature. "Why don''t we make a bet?" In the light voice, there was a tyranny that could not be refused. Shi Shaoqin slightly raised his eyebrows and waited for Gu Beichen to continue. "I''ve done it..." Gu Beichen said, still in a gentle voice without too much tone. "From now on, you and I are safe." This is a condition and a bet It''s not that you can''t face Shi Shaoqin... But what if you win narrowly? There is always a bomb buried around you that you don''t know when it will detonate. He should not take precautions everywhere, nor should Mo''er burden herself because of worry What he wants is to get rid of it completely! Shi Shaoqin smiled on one side of his mouth without any cover. "Do you think... The world will accommodate you?" Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "at that time, you can only stay where you most resist." He smiled, this time from the heart, even with a little excited smile In a moment, he heard Shi Shaoqin speak slowly: "because only that place can accept you..." His voice fell, all gloomy and awe inspiring... In this world, only the strong can control. The strong are in the dark! Stepping into the dark world, do you still want to be alone? Shi Shaoqin hissed coldly and hissed at the bottom of his eyes. "That''s my business..." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and youyou said, "since you are so sure, promise me... Why not?" Gu Beichen''s words fall, and his sight is opposite to Shi Shaoqin It seems that the eyes of both sides are calm without any waves... But in fact, the undercurrent has been surging. "Good!" Shi Shaoqin answered without any detour, "I''ll wait to see if you can really come out of hell..." Gu Beichen stretched out his hand, grabbed the coffee cup with his slender and powerful fingers and put it on his lips... He drank and frowned slightly. "This coffee is really hard to drink... It''s far from being cooked by Mo''er." Gu Beichen slowly put it down. "Sure enough, there is no emotional blessing, and everything lacks flavor." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and recovered instantly. Gu Beichen raised his eyes and hooked his thin lips with a smile that could melt the cold, "you won''t understand..." The voice of ridicule fell, and Gu Beichen''s ink pupil gradually showed a sense of superiority. "If you stay with childish people for a long time, you can become childish." Shi Shaoqin snorted coldly. Gu Beichen didn''t think so. "You''ll think I''m naive, just because you don''t..." after a pause, he put down his coffee and invited the waiter, "change it!" "All for..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice came faintly. The waiter felt a sudden chill in his heart. He answered and hurried to clean up all the things on the table. Gu Beichen looked at Shi Shaoqin. "Shaoqin said, ''if you can''t eat grapes, you''ll say sour''... You''re really performing incisively and vividly at the moment." With a "rub", Shi Shaoqin suddenly stood up. Then I heard a clang. Because Shi Shaoqin suddenly stood up, the waiter didn''t hold the plate firmly, so he fell to the ground... Suddenly, it broke. The most important thing is that fortunately, a drop of soup splashed on Shi Shaoqin''s trouser legs. The breath suddenly frozen to the critical point, and everyone''s eyes fell on Shi Shaoqin, as if... The next moment, a cruel and bloody storm will come. The waiter had forgotten his reaction and stood in place with a dull face Shi Shaoqin''s face was as usual, even without a little expression... No one knew what he was thinking at the moment. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, glanced at the waiter and said slowly, "I want to see her... Before I leave!" Chapter 718 Shi Shaoqin looked at Gu Beichen, because he was standing and Gu Beichen was doing it. Looking down, he felt like a king in the world. However, even so, Gu Beichen''s faint momentum didn''t lose Shi Shaoqin "And then?" Shi Shaoqin spoke slowly. Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "as long as one day..." paused, "of course, this day, I don''t want to see you!" At the same time, Gu Beichen looked up slightly and faced Shi Shaoqin. After Shi Shaoqin looked at Gu Beichen for a while, the corners of his mouth coldly hooked, said nothing, and turned to walk outside the restaurant Gu Beichen didn''t say anything until Shi Shaoqin left and slowly spoke to the waiter: "as his industry, I think people here can do anything without changing their face... Obviously, I think more." Words fall, Gu Beichen coldly takes back his sight and stands up His eyes looked deeply at the brown glass, and gradually, his vision was deep and bottomless. Raise your hand and smile... Your thumb and index finger are slightly staggered. All the movements seem abrupt, but they are full of pampering and love. At this moment, Jian Mo''s tears fell out of control He knows she''s here! He knows Jane Mo shook her hands and slowly compared to clean up, although... She knew that Gu Beichen couldn''t see it. "Husband..." Jane morhu said, "loving you is the most correct decision I have made in my life, so..." her voice trembled slightly and choked to hoarseness, "... I believe you at any time, any decision you make!" She didn''t know what Gu Beichen and Shao Shi were talking about, but she seemed to feel... Some things would go beyond her perception and even think of. But so what?! Her ah Chen, in this life... For her, it''s her man and her husband! Gu Beichen slowly put down his hand, took back his reluctant eyes and turned around... Almost at the same time, he lifted his step and walked outside the restaurant. "Thank you!" The waiter looked at Gu Beichen''s back and thanked him. There was a trace of gratitude in the bottom of his eyes. Although he didn''t understand what the man said to Qin Shao, he knew very well... His mistake was what the man had transferred, and Qin Shao ignored him. ¡­¡­ When Shi Shaoqin arrived at Jian Mo''s side, she was still lying on the glass... One hand was more than the gesture on the plane. Slant head, there is no gu Beichen over there. "Eat!" Shi Shaoqin gave the order calmly. Jane Mo ignored it, or didn''t hear it at all. Shi Shaoqin didn''t say anything. He just went to the table and looked at the cold food on it, frowning slightly... What he thought was Gu Beichen''s dislike of the food just now. Dislike? Ho immature! Stupefied and secretly mocked, Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo again, "it seems... The food in this restaurant is not delicious." After a pause, he had turned to English and said: "in charge of the restaurant, from the manager to the chef and the service staff... All shot!" Everyone''s face became frightened and their pupils widened in horror "Are you crazy?!" Jian Mo suddenly turned around and roared angrily, "do you think you are the arbiter of life or the ancient emperor... Kill whoever you want Looking at Jian Mo''s appearance, Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes slightly, and then the corners of his mouth gradually overflowed with a smile The atmosphere is a little strange. One moment it''s dignified, and the next moment it seems that the painting style is wrong... Up and down, it''s strange. Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin and became more and more angry, "naive!" Shi Shaoqin was not angry. Instead, he was in a better mood because Jian Mo scolded him as "childish". Even his voice was much calmer: "replace all these food..." The waiters came forward one after another with God''s son, but they began to pack the food orderly They can see from one side to the other. They don''t know why the waiter overturned the plate and was not severely punished. However, they knew that Shi Shaoqin was going to shoot them just now... It was no joke. There are too many ways for him to shoot you, but he doesn''t have to do it himself. The food was removed quickly and came up quickly In the restaurant, there are still the repertoires of Su Junli''s tour concert, either peaceful or passionate... But they all sound very good. Su Junli''s music "can make people pregnant" is not a joke. Jane Mo is not in the mood to eat, but she still forces herself to eat something "What were you talking about with ah Chen just now?" Jane asked casually. Shi Shaoqin put down his coffee cup, looked at Jian Mo deeply and didn''t speak Jian Mo was looked at by him and felt a little fluffy, "I didn''t ask." Then she took a piece of bread and pulled it into her mouth. "What else can you say?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, "you are in my hand. Of course I want you." Jane Mo bared her lower teeth and endured without saying anything. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo with a smile. "Mo''er," he shouted softly, "you said... If the Chen you like is not what you know, what would you do?" For Shao Shi calling her "Mo''er", Jian Mo has no power to resist or anything. Anyway... His mouth is on others. "I like him no matter what he becomes." Jian Mo snorted, "as long as he''s mine, is there a difference?" She hummed coldly again. It felt like how ridiculous Shi Shaoqin asked "People will change..." Shi Shaoqin slightly picked his eyebrow tail, "and everyone has a bottom line." What he said is very meaningful Jane Mo didn''t go deep into it and didn''t bother to think about it. Because she knew what she wanted and clearly understood that nothing could separate them from Gu Beichen. However, Jane Mo didn''t expect that she knew what she wanted, but she couldn''t predict the abnormal degree of Shi Shaoqin Shi Shaoqin didn''t answer when he saw Jian mo. he hooked the corner of his mouth and didn''t say anything more. "Jane wiped the corner of her mouth..." I took the napkin. As soon as Shi Shaoqin heard it, he didn''t continue to eat. Jian Mo got up and went outside the restaurant, followed by Shi Shaoqin The atmosphere is a little strange. People who don''t know think it''s a couple who are making trouble. After entering the elevator, Shi Shaoqin pressed the number key of the elevator. Jane Mo glanced. Instead of going upstairs, she went to the first floor. She didn''t ask, but stood indifferently at the farthest place from Shi Shaoqin... Although the elevator was so big. "Ding" came, the elevator arrived, and then the elevator door opened Shi Shaoqin didn''t move. Jian Mo just instinctively lifted his step at the moment when the elevator door opened and walked out When I step in the middle of the elevator door, I instinctively lift my eyes Looking at Gu Beichen, who turned around and looked at him with one hand, Jian Mo was frozen in place and opened his mouth slightly to his deep line of sight! Chapter 719 Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen stupidly. She didn''t move. Even her breathing was slow There was even a moment when she thought she missed him too much and hallucinated. The world becomes quiet in an instant. Everything is so unreal... Let Jane Mo''s heart go up and down. Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face gradually softened, and his thin lips were filled with a smile. That kind of smile spread across Junyan and reached the bottom of my eyes Jane Mo moved her eyelashes numbly. Her mind was empty, but her heart was full... She had no way to think, but she was pleasantly at a loss. That kind of surprise and fear of wandering around, and she didn''t react when she tore it. The elevator door has to close automatically because it has been open for a long time Jian Mo didn''t respond, so he saw Gu Beichen take an arrow step forward, and his hand went to block the elevator door that was going to clamp Jian mo. At the same time, Shi Shaoqin''s hand was already pressed on the "open" button... Almost falling at the same time as Gu Beichen''s hand blocking the door. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, disgusted with his instinctive reaction. The elevator door opened again, and Jane Mo also recovered Looking at Gu Beichen, who was already intertwined with her breathing, she suddenly closed her eyes and opened them again "Ah Chen?!" Jane Mo shouted hesitantly. Gu Beichen smiled and took Jian Mo''s hand with the hand blocking the elevator door to take her out of the elevator. At the right time, a low and magnetic voice came, "it''s me... Fool!" Spoiled words are full of helplessness, but there is more joy. Jane Mo only felt the position of her heart, ''Dong, Dong, Dong...'' shaking so strongly. She looked at Gu Beichen and looked down again Watching his warm palm wrap his hand, at that moment, the smile from the corners of his mouth spread like this untrue! This is Jane Mo''s only thought at the moment Shi Shaoqin looked at the two people outside without expression. Gu Beichen turned back and looked at him... At the right time, the elevator door wanted to close again. Shi Shaoqin didn''t move, but his eyes gradually filled with a vicious smile. He doesn''t worry that Gu Beichen will take Jian Mo away. On this day... He gives Chen and Jian mo. At the moment when the elevator door was closed, Shi Shaoqin''s smile spread around his mouth On this day, he didn''t give it in vain! Behind him came the sound of the elevator door closing. Jane Mo suddenly came back She looked back and saw that Shi Shaoqin was gone. Jian Mo looks at Gu Beichen again and is confused at the bottom of her eyes... In her cognition, Shaoshi is not likely to be such an easy compromise talent, is she? Gu Beichen raised his hand, gently stroked Jian Mo''s hair in front of his forehead, smiled and said, "I think so much all day. When I turn back, Xiao Yan will become a thinker..." With that, he took Jane Mo out of the hotel Gu Beichen didn''t understand Jian Mo''s eyes, but he didn''t explain. Jane moo smiled at the corners of her mouth and didn''t ask again... She seemed to know something in her heart. The person who parked the car outside has driven the car to the door of the hotel. Seeing Gu Beichen coming out, he respectfully gave him the car key Gu Beichen opened the co pilot''s door and motioned Jane Mo to get on the bus. Jian Mo glanced at Gu Beichen and looked back at the hotel before getting on the bus... As if she was afraid that Shaoshi would appear in the next second and dragged her away. Gu Beichen closed the door and went to the driver''s seat. After glancing at Jian Mo with a smile, he immediately started the car "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo shouted. "Huh?" Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo and hit the steering wheel, "what''s the matter?" "We..." Jane moju asked, "where are we going?" "Hmm..." Gu Beichen thought a little and said with a smile, "just walk!" Where can I go in a day? In fact, it doesn''t matter where to go... What matters is that they two and a little Yan! "Go to weapons square?" Jane Mo asked with a smile, "I heard Xiao Yue mention there before..." For the holy land of Goya, Jane Mo is limited to hearing about this place... Of course, remove the lover mountain! "OK..." Gu Beichen responded with a drowning voice and drove to the weapons square. "You used to come here a lot?" Jane Mo asked, looking at the scenery around. "Occasionally..." Gu Beichen smiled and explained, "here are some parts suppliers of emperor''s equipment." Jane Mo slightly adjusted her sitting posture, and a smile filled the corners of her mouth... There were stars in her eyes that had cried at that time. However, she was relaxed and happy at the moment. She was in a good mood as long as she was with Gu Beichen. "I want to call the milk bag..." Jian Mo looks at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen nodded and took his mobile phone to Jian mo There is a time difference of 12 hours between here and China. It is bathing in the warm sun in the morning. Los Angeles has been covered with stars and moon. "Daddy..." Jane Jie received a call from Gu Beichen and shouted sweetly. Jane Mo''s heart was sour at that moment and her lips were clenched, making the overflow sadness go back. Jane Jie frowned slightly, "Mommy?" He whispered, then turned his mouth, "I''ll hang up if I don''t talk... I''m a little busy at the moment!" "..." Jane Mo immediately grinned, "busy? Busy what? What can you do?" When Jian Jie heard the voice of Jian Mo, he smiled and opened flowers on his small face. Of course... He wouldn''t do this in front of Mommy. "I''m practicing a song with Uncle Li," Jian Jie said with an eyebrow. "Well, it''s to be included in Uncle Li''s new performance album." "Jun Li is at school?" Jane was a little surprised. Chien Chieh made a sound and then asked, "how does Mommy use daddy''s cell phone?" "I dropped my in the toilet..." Jane Mo talked nonsense. Jian Jie couldn''t stand it on his face and whispered, "I said, why don''t you reply to my SMS..." he turned his mouth, "Daddy lied for you!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and looked at Gu Beichen. "What did he say?" "He said he was going on a business trip, and you followed him with a shameless face..." Jane Jie said angrily. "Then, you left in a hurry and forgot to bring your mobile phone." Jane mumao opened her mouth and said angrily, "he didn''t tell me... Otherwise, I couldn''t be told the truth by your sudden question." "Stupid..." Jian Jie said, "Mommy, remember to bring gifts when you come back!" "OK..." Jane Mo smiled. "How about changing the system?" "Deal!" As soon as Jian Jie heard that it was his favorite or a set, he was immediately excited, "I heard it clearly. It''s a set, not a set!" Jane Mo''s nose was sour again, but she tried to smile, "I know what I said is a set... You don''t have to repeat it for me." "Well, I like Snoopy one by one. Mommy can take it with me..." Jane Jie explained. Jianmo agrees to Jianjie''s requirements one by one. Jianjie feels that mommy has never been so talkative... She is a child and happily kisses Jianmo on the phone. Chapter 720 After talking sweet nonsense with Jane Jie for a while, Jane Mocai said, "milk bag, Mommy can''t accompany you now. Will you blame Mommy?" "Can you stop being my mommy?" Jian Jie asked. "Of course not..." Jane Mo didn''t think about it, but said instinctively. Jian Jie glanced. "That''s ok... Anyway, you''re my mommy." The corners of Jian Mo''s mouth spread a smile. The ups and downs of her life, Gu Beichen on the way, and the support and company of her two children... She is happier than too many people. "Uncle, stay away from here. Does Mommy want to talk?" Jane Jie couldn''t stand the sensibility between herself and mommy and asked hurriedly. Jane answered and waited quietly "Mo Mo......" Su Junli''s soft and pleasant voice came. Jane took a deep breath. "Jun Li, thank you." "I grew up with Xiao Jie, and now he is also a child of the Su family. Don''t you think he''s a stranger to me?" Su Junli''s voice was always soft. Jane Mo drooped her eyes, "but what should be said is still to say..." The opposite side was silent. Su Junli asked, "Mo Mo, are you okay?" "I''m fine..." Jane Mo tilted her head and looked out of the window. Maybe she felt that she was just too eager and laughed at herself. Then she said slowly, "everything will be fine..." Su Junli didn''t ask much, but said: "I don''t know what happened, but when Chen Shao came to me, I felt something..." Jane murmured her lips and didn''t answer. "Take good care of yourself and Xiao Yan," Su Junli said softly. "Chen Shao is a person who can rely on and rely on. I believe... So please believe that I will take good care of Xiao Jie when you can''t take care of him." "I believe..." said Jane Mo, suppressing her emotions. Su Junli smiled and explained again, "take care of yourself." "Hmm..." Jane Mo answered, and Su Junli said good wishes to each other again before hanging up the phone. Gu Beichen put his hand gently on Jian Mo''s hand and said softly, "there is a weapons square in front. There is a post office next to it. We can send cards to Xiao Jie and them." Jane Mo tilted her head and looked at Gu Beichen. He was so invisible that he dissolved her sadness "Good!" Jane answered. Gu Beichen parked the car in the parking space, took Jian Mo''s hand, crossed the weapons square in the sun, and went to the post office opposite the parking space first. Today''s weather is very good and the temperature is still high. It''s slightly windy, not cold and warm. The palms beside the weapons square are whirling and the grass is green... There are flowers that Jane Mo knows and doesn''t know, opening to the sun. Selected some postcards, which are the characteristics of local cultural scenery Gu Beichen and Jian Mo write their blessings on each card together, then sign their names... Finally, put them into the letter box together. After Jian Mo and Gu Beichen put the last card mailed to Chu Zixiao into the letterhead, they looked at each other and smiled. "Ah..." Jane Mo stretched out her arms, looked up slightly against the sun, and smiled at the corners of her mouth, "ah Chen, I did such a thing for the first time..." "Me too!" Gu Beichen smiled at Jian mo. Jane Mo took back her lazy arms and grabbed Gu Beichen''s arm. "Suddenly she felt that she was ten years younger... I felt that these should be the things that green years would do." Gu Beichen smiled, took Jian Mo''s hand and walked to the center of the square "When you are with someone you like, you will feel very young when you do anything." Gu Beichen said softly, "so, in fact, you are because of me!" Jane Mo glanced, but still affirmed, "well, you''re right... So you''re also because of me." "I didn''t say I was ten years younger..." Gu Beichen denied. "..." Jian Mo was slightly stunned and recalled in his mind. He found that Gu Beichen didn''t say that just now, and suddenly looked confused and forced. When Gu Yamo said something, he walked in front of her in a daze. Jian Mo takes a few steps forward. Gu Beichen has accepted the folk guitar in the hands of the wandering artist with a smile Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen with a smile, facing the line of sight projected by him, and waited with leisure. Gu Beichen converged his sight and lowered his eyes. After adjusting the tone, his slender fingers first crossed several strings, and then his fingers bent slightly. After the music full of campus style overflowed, his low voice sang slowly Gradually, passers-by came around... Few people could understand what Gu Beichen was singing? However, from his voice and tune, I heard a little bit of... Well, flirting! Yes, Gu Beichen is flirting with Jian Mo now A song that boys often deliberately flirt with girls on campus, but actually express their love. Jane Mo stared angrily, seriously teasing her Gu Beichen, but her face was full of smiles After Gu Beichen''s song fell, the applause came. Someone put money into the guitar box of the wandering artist and gave Gu Beichen a voice of praise "What are they talking about?" Jane Mo can''t understand what they say. Her foreign language is limited to English. Gu Beichen first returned the guitar to the wandering artist, then smiled and said, "they praised me for being handsome..." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "why don''t I know that President Gu was still so narcissistic?" "Am I not handsome?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows, "but they really praised me for being handsome... Especially those women asked me if I had a girlfriend and said I could have dinner together at night." Jane Mo smiled, but it was fake. "It''s like this..." she deliberately lengthened her tone, "go, I agree." Gu Beichen plucked Jian Mo''s hair, "there you are," he took Jian Mo''s hand and ignored others'' attention, "there is no one else in my eyes..." Jian Mo looked at the women Gu Beichen said, and then deliberately approached him and swore sovereignty, "you will still have such campus style things. You are really impressed." "I''m good at everything except cooking." Gu Beichen said impolitely. "Is it really good for you to tell the truth in such a serious way?" Jane Mo smiled and said, "but I like you like this..." paused, "but I''m still curious. I feel that you shouldn''t be like this when you go to school." "I fell in love with the folk guitar for a while and stayed in the club for a while..." Gu Beichen said with a smile. "You know, such clubs are generally famous for flirting with girls and pretending to be cool." Jane Mo smiled and nodded, then asked dangerously in her voice, "how many girls did you flirt with?" Chapter 721 Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and didn''t answer, but there was a deep smile on his thin lips. Jian Mo was dissatisfied and muttered, "I flirted a lot at a glance..." "No!" Gu Beichen shook his head with a smile. Jane Mo rolled her eyes, "the devil believes..." "Really not..." Gu Beichen picked his eyes and tail, and the smile on the edge of his thin lips showed the evil charm of spoiling and drowning, "it''s others who tease me." "..." Jian Mo''s mouth twitched again, because Gu Beichen''s words should be true. However, generally speaking... The facts are less acceptable. "And you?" Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and strolled in the court, "what club did you join when you were at school?" Looking at the performances of various folk singers in front of Jane, there are all kinds of scattered folk singers "At that time, all my thoughts were on design," Jian Mo recalled that when she went to school, the corners of her mouth unconsciously spread a smile. "Well, later, because of Xiao Yue, she joined the debate club." "So I met Zixiao..." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian mo. "Yes, well... Not at all." Jane Mo shook her head, "Zixiao and I were first pulled to a big class by Xiao Yue. There was a little accident, so..." Jane Mo didn''t go on. Between Zixiao and Gu Beichen, she was a little embarrassed in her generation. Gu Beichen didn''t continue to ask, "your life is really monotonous..." he sounded a little disgusted. "My IQ is not enough..." Jane Mo said in a strange voice. "Of course, time should stay in professional classes... Besides, at that time, I was full of hope that the professor would write me a letter of recommendation to UCL." At this point, Jane Mo stopped and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen also turned around The morning sunshine passed through the two people warm and plated each other with a halo. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo called softly. Gu Beichen looked at her with deep eyes and answered softly, "huh?" "I dreamed of you last night..." Jane Mo looked up slightly and looked up at Gu Beichen. "I dreamed of the time when you and I first met." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deeper, and his thin lips were filled with a bad smile, "well, surrogate advertising..." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "can you still have a good chat?!" Gu Beichen gently took Jian Mo into his arms, "you must think that I came to you because you are very similar to Shen Chu''s eyes..." "Isn''t it?" Jane Mo snorted stiffly. "Of course not..." Gu Beichen looked at the front with deep eyes and said, "Mo''er, you... Had my shadow on you." "Huh?" Jane Mo raised her eyes in Gu Beichen''s arms. Gu Beichen looked at her, "the kind of being thrown into the dark... Longing for someone to pull out of the confusion and frustration of the dark." Jane Mo fanned her eyelashes and was a little confused "Mo''er," Gu Beichen called softly, "if one day you know that I''m not as good as you think, what will you do?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen seriously and didn''t speak. Gu Beichen was a little nervous, even though he didn''t show it on his face... But while waiting, he was still nervous. "Imagine?" Jane Mo said softly, "why should I imagine that you are so real in front of me?" If asked, Gu Beichen didn''t know how to answer for a while. "I''m not real..." Gu Beichen answered for a long time. Jian Mo gently pulled Gu Beichen''s sleeve and stood on tiptoe. His lips fell on his lips, "you are Gu Beichen, you are Jian Mo''s husband... That''s all!" The whisper on the lips becomes beautiful and peaceful in the sun It''s like a seed falling in the dark. It can break through and grow at any time. Gu Beichen looked at his face close at hand, and his eyes gradually filled with a smile "Thank you for seeing me for the first time. You need my help..." Gu Beichen said in a low and magnetic voice. "Thank you too. I noticed you that day!" Mo''er, when the dust settles, I will tell you about my past Campus, life, and... And Shi Shaoqin! ''click'' came Jane Mo looked sideways and saw a blonde man with a professional camera in his hand smiling at them. "The scene just now was so beautiful," said the big boy in Portuguese that Jane Mo couldn''t understand. "I couldn''t help but take a picture... If you don''t mind, you can leave a mailbox and I''ll pass it back to you." With that, the big boy quickly took out his pen and paper. Gu Beichen took the boy''s pen, wrote down his email address on the paper and thanked him in fluent Portuguese. "What did he say?" Asked Jane mo. "Say you are beautiful..." Gu Beichen said with a smile, "ask me for your email address." Jane Mo frowned. "You gave it to him?" "Didn''t you just think I had a lot of girls flirting?" Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and walked forward again, "then I''ll give you a chance..." "Gu Beichen!" Jane Mo gnashed her teeth and stopped. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, and there was a joke in the depths of the ink pupil. Jane Mo knows that she has been fooled again "Fool!" Gu Beichen sighed helplessly, "if anyone dares to spy on you, I must strangle his idea in the bud... Give him a chance?" Jane Mo glanced, but the smile at the corners of her mouth couldn''t help hooking up "Tired?" Gu Beichen asked softly. Jane Mo shook her head, "not tired..." Although she didn''t know anything, Jane Mo seemed to feel that... He and she won''t get along for a long time this time. She doesn''t want to waste time. She doesn''t know how long she has to support her memory She just wants to be with him well, even if she just stands quietly. "Dang, Dang, dang..." The ringing of the clock shook the doves of peace in the square and spread their wings one after another. "Where is that?" Jane Mo looked at the building in front of her curiously and asked. Gu Beichen looked at the front with deep eyes, "Church..." "Church?!" Jane Mo said softly, and then looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and opposite Jane mo. a few seconds later, he gently opened his thin lips and said, "I heard that when the clock rings at the whole hour, you open the door of the church with piety, and God will surprise you." Jane Mo frowned slightly. She was not a little girl. She had fantasies about such a statement, "you are very childish today..." "That''s just childish for you..." Gu Beichen smiled and said in a low voice, "do you want to try?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen with a slight warning, trying to see if he was playing with her again. However, his dark eyes are as deep as the sea, and her thoughts can only be hooked to believe him Jane morhu raised her lower lip and looked at the direction of the church and Gu Beichen. Finally... She walked to the church. Gu Beichen didn''t move. He just looked at Jian Mo''s back, and a thin smile was on one side of his mouth. Jane Mo stood at the door of the church, looked back at Beichen and saw him nod to himself. Finally... Jian Mo pushed open the door of the church with the hope of the unknown Chapter 722 When the door opened, Jane Mo looked at everything inside and suddenly widened her eyes The whole church is decorated with blue and white Gobi love wild lilies. The prayer seat is Hydrangea pulled with blue and pink ribbons. It is full of romance. Jane Mo''s eyes fluttered and looked at her eyelashes. There was already a gentle song full of blessings She looked slightly to the left and saw a group of smiling children singing prayer songs with candles in their hands. Jane Mo''s lips gradually narrowed up. She even clenched her clothes in her hand because of her instinctive tension. There was a different breath around her. Jian Mo looked at it subconsciously... Looked up and looked up at Gu Beichen. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo whispered, some of whom seemed at a loss. "This flower is the national flower of Chile..." Gu Beichen said in a low voice, "it''s called Gobi Aiye lily." Jane Mo sucked her nose slightly and returned to Los Angeles from England. When ah Chen began to pursue... He was used to sending flowers. And every time the flowers, no matter the flowers or the number, they all talk about what they want to say to her "In the earliest Chile, this kind of flower had only blue and white..." Gu Beichen continued. "It symbolizes purity... Just like our love, it can''t tolerate any impurities." Jane Mo''s eyes were slightly red, but the corners of her mouth were smiling. At the right time, a little boy with big eyes came over with a bunch of red Gobi AI wild lilies in his hand, which seemed to be stained with blood... And handed them to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen took it and put it into Jian Mo''s hand "Later, in a war, the blood stained the land full of Gobi love wild lilies..." Gu Beichen paused, slightly lowered his eyes and gathered the heaviness of his eyes. "In the coming year, Gobi love wild lilies all over the mountains will become red!" Jian Mo''s heart began to tremble. She resisted to think deeply. Now Gu Beichen told her the origin of the flower Gu Beichen raised his eyes, and the eagle''s eyes coagulated Jian Mo deeply, as if trying to hope that she could understand or read the meaning he wanted to convey. His Mo''er is so smart, isn''t he?! "Even if it is watered by blood," Gu Beichen smiled with a seemingly empty smile on his thin lips, "but it is enthusiastic and full of hope..." "Ah Chen?!" Jane Mo''s breath was slightly rapid, and even wanted to throw away the red and blood flowers in her hand. Gu Beichen''s smile deepened a lot and comforted, "all things in the world have the truth of existence... There is also the law of mutual restraint." He held Jian Mo''s hand and said, "as long as we firmly believe that purity can also be hot, and the heat will still become pure... It''s good." "But..." Jane Mo didn''t hold back and wanted to speak. "Shh..." Gu Beichen smiled and smiled. "Enjoy it. That''s what you need to do." Without giving Jian Mo a chance to speak again, Gu Beichen curled up his arms slightly and waited Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and his bent arm. His mouth tightened. Finally, he gently put his hand in and pulled him up Gu Beichen took Jian Mo into the church. Then someone closed the door and put an end to everything outside. In the "empty" church, there is no one but the children singing scriptures and the nuns in the Church Just when Jian Mo seemed to feel something and didn''t seem to know what to do, the wedding march rang At the moment of her eyes, the flowers and fireworks in full bloom in the ink sky are bright and exciting. With the beat of the music, Gu Beichen took Jian Mo through the road woven by blue and white Gobi love wild lilies and went to the platform where the priest stood when the music sounded The red flowers in Jian Mo''s hand shine brightly against her skin. There are no relatives and friends, only her and him... What''s the relationship? She is finally going to marry Gu Beichen Even if it was a form, she felt that the whole world would never have any regrets. Jane Mordor hopes that this road will be faster, so that he can complete his wish quickly. But how she wished to slow down... She could lead ah Chen all the time, walking and walking, walking and walking... To the end of the world. But... How can there be so many satisfactory things in the world? The parties are tangled. They don''t know which is the best. How can God have free time to clarify everyone''s way?! Gu Beichen stopped with Jian Mo in front of the priest. Jian Mo had tears in her eyes, but she smiled and looked at him deeply. "Thank God," the priest said with a smile in English, "let me witness the pure and hot love again." Gu Beichen and Jian Mo look at the priest At the right time, the children have begun to sing scriptures and songs, smiling at a pair of "new people"! The priest first said a string of words of prayer, then looked at Gu Beichen with a smile and asked, "Mr. Gu Beichen, do you want Jian Mo to be your wife, never abandon or give up her at any time... Treat yourself well for her, live for her, cherish yourself, break through the darkness, stand in the dawn and hold hands with her... Until the end of the world?" Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo and said to the priest with a smile, "I do!" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen stupidly. Such an oath was mixed with too much information "Miss Jianmo," the priest looked at Jianmo again and asked with a smile, "do you want Gu Beichen to be your husband?" Jian Mo takes back her sight on Gu Beichen''s face and looks at the priest "At any time, believe in his faith, wait for him, love him, and don''t give up the last glimmer of hope..." the priest didn''t know whether he had been trained, and the Yin and Yang of his words faltered. "Even in the dark, I firmly believe that he will accompany you... Until the end of the world?" Jane Mo''s nose became more sour. She closed her eyes and tried to swallow her sadness When she opened it again, she smiled the most at the corners of her mouth, nodded, and her voice was slightly choked, "I do!" The priest''s face also opened a blessing smile, "now, the groom can kiss the bride..." Gu Beichen and Jian Mo looked at each other, with gratitude in their ink pupils. "The first wedding... We had too much helplessness." Gu Beichen''s voice was low and magnetic, "the second time, because of irreversible reasons, we didn''t really complete the wedding..." Jian Mo''s eyes were filled with thin mist, but with a happy smile, he looked up at Gu Beichen''s deep ink pupil "After three, this time," Gu Beichen paused slightly, and the smile from the corners of his mouth went straight to the bottom of his eyes, "Mo''er... I''m glad that you and I have really completed this unfinished wedding." Chapter 723 At the moment, Jane Mo has no way to think except to be moved However, the happier this moment is, she knows... The more difficult things she and Gu Beichen need to face. But so what? He loves her, and she returns it with love... Then there is no difficulty that cannot be overcome. Gu Beichen''s handsome face slowly pressed down... Thin lips, gently falling on the lips of Jian mo. He held Jane Mo''s waist in one hand and the back of her brain in the other... So he kissed deeply. Lingering gentle movements, domineering lips and tongues In this way, it occupied Jane Mo''s lip flap. While intersecting with her body fluid, it occupied all her nerves and the heart that lived for him. Mo''er, I love you... For you, I won''t return to the original me, and I won''t let you stay there too long. Ah Chen, I love you... For you, I will wait for you... Always waiting for you! We also need to accompany to the old age. We also need to walk the road of life hand in hand, see the beautiful scenery and walk through the thorny road Without each other''s company, this life will be completely flawed. I don''t know how long she kissed. Jane Mo didn''t give up Gu Beichen''s release for a long time, but she couldn''t breathe The priest looked at the couple and said with a smile, "the Lord will bring you good luck..." Gu Beichen and the priest nodded their heads with a smile. The priest raised his eyebrows, looked at Jian Mo, who was already dizzy with kisses, and motioned to the nun. The nun turned on the TV and quickly connected something Jane Mo looked at her without blinking. She didn''t know what surprise Gu Beichen had prepared for her. Soon, after a video connection, the TV has an image It''s Xiao Jing! "Oh, my God, I really need this salary increase!" Xiao Jing, holding his mobile phone in his hand, said with an undisputed face, "madam, this matter has to be decided today, and we must increase our salary!" Jian Mo was teased by Xiao Jing''s appearance and burst out laughing. In an instant, she dissolved her sadness, "why do you want to increase your salary?" Xiao Jing turned his eyes. "It''s more than 11:00 p.m. in Los Angeles," he said helplessly, "if Chen doesn''t have a phone, I''ll remotely control things thousands of miles away and decorate everything in the church in two hours..." Jane Mo opened her mouth slightly, obviously surprised. "According to Chen Shao''s meaning," Xiao Jing continued to vomit bitter water, "but also the layout should not be disorderly. What''s the reason for my omnipotent special help and no salary increase?" "Indeed..." Jane Mo nodded seriously. Xiao Jing saw Jian Mo''s expression and was immediately dissatisfied, "look at your expression... There''s no hope of a salary increase." He glanced. "Then I''ll always give me the year-end bonus I deducted this year?" "Although I am the largest shareholder," Jane Mo innocently fanned her eyes, "Gu is the CEO, so you can find him!" "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth, "a pair of unscrupulous business couples, hum!" The smile on Jane Mo''s mouth became more and more brilliant "Forget it, just think I''m generous..." Xiao Jing said in a strange voice, "these should be your wedding gifts..." he said seriously, "Chen Shao, madam Shao, sincerely bless you... Although the blessing can only be transmitted by video." Jian Mo was moved. "Thank you, Xiao Jing..." paused. "I''m grateful not only for today, but also for your help with ah Chen... I keep it in mind." Xiao Jing smiled and said nothing, but turned the video slightly "Chen Shao, young lady..." Susan entered the picture and said in a sincere voice, "bless you... You will always be happy." Look at him, right Beichen, right up "Thank you!" Jane Mo looked at the picture and said. "Hey..." when a sigh came, Xiao Jing pretended to be forced to say, "poor me, I have to make a video connection... Wait!" Before Jian Mo could react, he saw the TV picture flashing... Then, there appeared Jian Jie''s cute little face. "Daddy, Mommy... Happy marriage!" Jian Jie''s black pupils are full of blessings, "although I''m not present, Xiao Yan feels the same for me!" "Milk bag..." "Hey!" Jane Jie immediately raised her eyebrows to stop Jane Mo''s moved nerves. "I''ll go to bed with a good mood later. Mommy is still happy with Daddy." Jane Mo smiled, and the smile also dispersed the water mist just coming out of her eyes. "I called you at that time, but you didn''t reveal it at all." "Daddy wants to surprise you..." Jane Jie smiled. "Of course, I also hope Mommy can be happy." Jane Mozhe smiled at the corners of her mouth. At the right time, Gu Beichen grabbed her waist and dragged her into his arms Xiao Jing controls everyone''s video line. Everyone won''t say it for a long time, but they are sincere blessings. Su Junli''s warm blessing: Mo Mo, you will go on happily with Chen Shao Li Yunze''s mouth was filled with an evil smile: remember to put wine when you come back, or I''ll be too bad... I didn''t eat a meal. Dragon owl is the simplest: Congratulations! Li Xiaoyue looked excited: girl, you have fulfilled your wish... Wait for me, and I will try my best. Xiangyu people: Momo, sister mo... Your wedding is also very unique. The time difference is 12 hours and half the earth... Who can catch up with such love?! Proud and charming on Shen Chu''s face: I won''t bless you. Well, that''s it... Anyway, I didn''t attend the wedding, and I won''t envy you. Jane Mo smiled, "I''ll wait for your happiness to make me envy..." Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo and smiled, "well, I''m going to have a beauty sleep... Beichen tossed us to death in order to make you happy. Well, remember to bring skin care products back to compensate me!" "OK..." Jane Mo agreed with a smile. Maybe it''s because of the problem of time, or we are afraid and resist to see some sadness under happiness. Everyone didn''t delay for a long time The picture flashed again. Jane Mo didn''t know who was next, but they were full of expectation. When the figure emerged and Jian Mo looked at Chu Zixiao, she was in a complicated mood. Silence! Gu Beichen gently pinched Jian Mo and gave her support "Zixiao..." "Bless you!" Chu Zixiao and Jian Mo spoke almost at the same time, and they stopped at the same time. Jane murmured her lips and didn''t go on. Chu Zixiao looked at the two people in the picture, with a cool look and a sense of pride... That was the way Jian Mo was most familiar with him before. "Little uncle," Chu Zixiao paused and said, "little aunt, I wish you happiness." Jian Mo looked at Chu Zixiao in a daze and said "little aunt", as if something was over It seems that something is quietly starting Chapter 724 Chu Zixiao hung up the phone and stood in front of the window of Chu Tang law firm with his hands in his pockets The Wutong trees outside have already fallen off the leaves, and feel lonely at night. "Dong Dong!" The knock came, but it didn''t pull back Chu Zixiao''s thoughts. Han Zhenzhen knocked at the door again, but there was no movement "Zixiao should be busy at the moment," Tang Yu came over, "have you prepared all the materials?" Han Zhenzhen looked at the office where there was no movement and nodded to Tang Yu, "well, it''s all ready..." She slightly raised the folder in her hand, "Zixiao has been in a coma for half a year and has just woke up. There will be a case to be heard tomorrow... I''m afraid of him..." "Are you afraid of Zixiao appearing in court?" Tang Yu smiled, "when have you seen him be capricious in the case?" "Also......" Han Zhenzhen also pulled the corners of his mouth, but it was a little strange. "Give it to me..." Tang Yu explored his hand. "I just went in to find him." Han Zhenzhen didn''t say anything more. He handed Tang Yu the folder in his hand. "I''ll fix the supper. What do you eat?" "You see!" Tang Yu doesn''t care. Look at the people who are still working overtime for a serious criminal case in court tomorrow. "It''s estimated that it will take a while to see what you want to eat. I''ll treat you." Han Zhenzhen smiled and nodded without refusing. Tang Yu just wanted to push the door. Han Zhenzhen suddenly stopped and asked, "Tang Yu, do you think Zixiao woke up this time..." "Don''t ask me personal questions." Tang Yu interrupted Han Zhenzhen, "don''t say I don''t know what ah Xiao thinks now. Even if I know, what I say to you is not appropriate." Han Zhenzhen pulled down the corners of his mouth and shrugged. Without saying anything, he turned and went to work. Tang Yu looked at her back, with a touch of helplessness at the bottom of his eyes, and pushed open the door of Chu Zixiao Looking at the back standing in front of the window, the light projected Chu Zixiao on the window, reflecting his calm face. "The case materials are ready," Tang Yu put the folder on his desk, "are you sure you want to go there in person tomorrow?" After more than half a year, I didn''t go to court, or I was isolated from the world in a coma... It''s actually a little risky to take over a major case after I was discharged from the hospital. "It''s time to start again..." Chu Zi Xiao''s mouth was silent. "What Wutong bloom is better, that''s only a short flowering season. What time did it take in a year?" Tang Yu frowned and looked at Chu Zixiao''s back. Chu Zixiao raised a self mocking smile at the corners of his mouth With his short-term love with Mo Mo, what is it in life?! Yunze is right. The three of them... The problem is always with him. Only when he let go can he really start over ¡­¡­ Out of the church, Jane Mo looked around the outside, some curious people Looking at Gu Beichen, she shouted in English at everyone happily: "I''m married..." With that, she turned her back, looked at the red to hot Gobi AI wild lily in her hand, looked at Gu Beichen staring at her, and then threw the flower back Someone came forward to rob, and Jian Mo looked back... The smile on the corner of his mouth was full of happiness under sweetness. The sun penetrated the palm leaves and sprinkled on Gu Beichen and Jian Mo in small pieces They looked at each other, held hands and left the church with their fingers clasped "When you and I came out of the hotel, the time didn''t coincide with the time arranged by Xiao Jing!" Asked Jane mo. Gu Beichen smiled, "I gave Xiao Jing an order in advance..." "How did you know I would ask to come to weapons square?" Jane Mo doesn''t understand. "If you don''t propose, I''ll suggest..." Gu Beichen raised his eyebrow. "Of course, if you don''t decide to come here first, maybe Xiao Jing can decorate here better." "You really should give him a raise..." Jian Mo glanced at Gu Beichen''s perfect side face. "You''re not afraid of being poached by others for such a capable and heartfelt person?" Gu Beichen looked confident, "if you rely on interests to keep people, you can''t keep your heart..." "Yes!" Jane Mo deliberately joked, "give me your cell phone." Gu Beichen didn''t ask anything and gave his mobile phone to Jian mo Jian Mo opens the text message interface and doesn''t avoid Gu Beichen. She sends a text message to Xiao Jing calmly. Gu Beichen saw the content of the message and was unable to laugh or cry, but he had no opinion. Xiao Jing is still reading in pieces. He is really sad to follow Gu Beichen, a boss The mobile phone vibrated. Xiao Jing lazily took the mobile phone... Seeing that it was Gu Beichen, he hurried to sit up, with less complaint on his face and more chilly breath. Chen Shao: you are so versatile. I don''t think you should ask for a raise in salary or any year-end bonus. I''ll give you a move... Make a set of accounts in any project while Gu is away... Well, I won''t report you! At the end, a cute smiling face was hung. Xiao Jing was stunned and then reacted. This is Jian MOFA''s The corners of his mouth spread a smile. Xiao Jing didn''t reply. He just pressed out his mobile phone and continued to lie on the sofa. "Jian Mo, I believe you..." Xiao Jing said quietly, "if you are like this, where is Chen Shao willing to put you in the dark? He will only double tell Shi Shaoqin... Even if he does it again, he will only stand in the sun!" ¡­¡­ A day passes too fast Although for Jane Mo, she has done too many meaningful things However, when night comes and dinner is over, they swear the passage of time. I didn''t ask Gu Beichen how long this illusion can last In my heart, I clearly understand that the coming of night represents a beautiful end. "I''ll take you back later..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth to the end, and the eagle''s eyes stared at Jian Mo deeply. Jane moped her lower lip and nodded silently. "Mo''er, will you blame me?" Gu Beichen laughed at himself at the corners of his mouth, "or do you prefer me to take you..." The low voice fell, and Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deep, obviously filled with hope Hope Jane Mo said: hope to take her away! Jane Mo shook her head at the sight of Gu Beichen. "Temporary forbearance, if you can exchange for long-term happiness..." she pricked her lips and endured the impulse guidance, "I''m willing to endure!" Gu Beichen held Jian Mo''s hand on the table, "during this period, it may be very painful." "I have all your memories to support every dark time..." Jian Mo smiled. "Rest assured to do what you want to do. I will wait for you to pick us up with Xiao Yan." Did not explain anything, but Jane Mo seemed to know something She told Gu Beichen with her strong and firm eyes that there was no need to worry about her. When it was difficult... Even if we couldn''t spend it together, we could face and bear it together. On such a road, there are each other, not lonely Gu Beichen drove to the hotel with Jian Mo in his car Unlike the excitement of coming out, there was silence in the car at the moment. The car stopped at the door of the hotel. Gu Beichen looked at Shi Shaoqin standing at the door, then got out of the car and went to open the door for Jian mo. Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin and instinctively resisted... But she tried not to show it. Compared with ah Chen, she personally sent her to Shao Shi. What kind of self-esteem trampled under pain and sorrow? "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen said lightly with thin lips. Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen. She was reluctant to give up at the bottom of her eyes, but she couldn''t bear to attack, "it''s okay together!" Gu Beichen nodded with a smile and didn''t say anything more. At this time, talking too much has become each other''s burden and sadness Jian Mo seemed to understand this truth too. Without saying anything more, he walked slowly towards Shi Shaoqin... Even, he tried to resist the impulse to turn back. Shi Shaoqin calmly looked at Jian Mo coming. Under the light, his eyes were deep, making people feel as if he wanted to absorb everything around at any time Jian Mo''s footsteps were heavy, just like filling with lead. Every step was extremely difficult. Suddenly When Jian Mo was in the middle of Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin, her eyelashes looked at Shi Shaoqin and trembled slightly... She couldn''t help but turn around in her heart. Without being controlled by the pregnant body, she rushed to Gu Beichen at the fastest speed He grabbed his arms with both hands and kissed his lips on tiptoe. At that moment, tears burst down the embankment in an instant Chapter 725 If love is insane, then Jane Mo is like this at the moment Not just to feel his breath She took the initiative to ask for a hot kiss and looked forward to the response. At this moment, Gu Beichen willfully forgot the scene, and even forgot Shi Shaoqin Just dragging the back of Jane Mo''s brain, almost instantly, she opened Jane Mo''s lips and kissed her hard! Kiss is hot and full of expectation, but also full of all the thoughts and blessings to each other, as well as anxiety. The disguise of two people, at this moment, can''t resist all the emotions towards each other after all, and poured into a mess. Night is as dark as ink. Maybe it has been washed by meteor shower. There are not many stars tonight. The night wind gently blows Jian Mo''s hair, showing a desolation However, how can she endure the warmth and madness given to her by Gu Beichen at the moment? Their lips and tongues danced together in a graceful dance, just like the tango they danced with each other The spring heart rippling full of passion is the most assured fight and entanglement for yourself Just because it is the most intimate dance between lovers. Shi Shaoqin still stood where he was, even without any change in his expression, just like a stone statue. However, a pair of long and narrow eyes burst out a faint light, which makes people unable to see clearly under the backlight Jane Mo and Gu Beichen didn''t know how long they had been hugging and kissing, so long that everyone dared not break the atmosphere at the moment, and they were suffocating with their breath held. Slowly let go of Jian Mo''s lips, and there is the smell of salty tears in the corners of his mouth Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply, held her face piously, and kissed away the tears on her face However, I can''t kiss clean. Jane Mo closed her eyes and cried. Tears kept pouring out. She couldn''t stop it Even, because of Gu Beichen''s action at the moment, his heart contracted. The sob of "sobbing..." spilled out of her throat uncontrollably, and Jane Mo closed her eyes, "ah Chen, I don''t want to leave you... I don''t want to..." Gu Beichen''s Distressed eyebrows are all tightly wrinkled together. How can he be willing to leave? "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen''s voice was hoarse under some sadness. "Then I''ll take you away..." Jane Mo grabbed Gu Beichen''s waist, buried her face in his chest and listened to her strong heartbeat She knew that she shouldn''t be so, and shouldn''t let him have concerns willfully... But she couldn''t control herself. Why did she waste her time being brave enough when she could be together as easily as before. Now she just wants to be with him. Is it so difficult?! Sucking her nose, Jane Mo tried to swallow with her eyes closed, trying to reverse her sadness Get up and look at Gu Beichen. Even if there are tears in her eyes, Jane Mo''s mouth is smiling from her heart. If you want to eliminate the thunder that has stepped on your feet, you must have enough patience to pick and pull the wire that will detonate the steel ball... She can''t let the thunder step on ah Chen''s feet all the time. "I''ll wait for you..." Three words, Jian Mo said very firmly. Without the hesitation and cowardice, at this moment, Jane Mo told Gu Beichen in three words. She has nothing to fear... Because she firmly believes that no matter how great the difficulties are, they can be overcome as long as they are faced with each other. Gu Beichen didn''t say anything, but Mo Tong''s deep and Mo Kong seemed to be connected together Each other wants to be willful and desperate, but they have to face it soberly... Escape is not the solution. Jane Mo turned slowly with tears in her eyes and a confident smile on her mouth Under Gu Beichen''s sight, he walked to Shi Shaoqin step by step. More than ten meters away, Jane Mo has walked out for a century There is no choice but to resist the past, and there is no need to care about the breathing distance of Beichen. However, no matter how slow or how far... It will eventually end. Jian Mo stood in front of Shi Shaoqin and looked at his eyes with resentment Shi Shaoqin frowned invisibly. There was something unclear about Jian Mo''s expression. Jian Mo ignored Shi Shaoqin and didn''t even say anything. He passed him and entered the hotel... What a "clever" shame! Shi Shaoqin looked back at Gu Beichen until Jian Mo''s figure was blocked by the column. Gu Beichen stood in place and took off his work suit. At the moment, he was wearing a dark dark green half length windbreaker... Casual but not casual. The eagle''s eyes seemed to penetrate all, and wanted to follow Jane Mo''s back, but... They couldn''t see anything. Shi Shaoqin walked over. "A private plane has been arranged," he said quietly. "Several people have been arranged for you on the plane, and awei is also there." "Take good care of her..." Gu Beichen''s vision still falls in the position of the hotel. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were slightly deep. "Why, I''m afraid I''m angry?" Gu Beichen looked at Shi Shaoqin. If Jian Mo''s behavior had been put on someone else, he might have died. "Good luck..." Shi Shaoqin smiled, but there was no temperature in his smile. Gu Beichen glanced at Gu Beichen, turned and opened the door of the driver''s seat. He stopped before getting on the bus: "Shaoqin..." he shouted, "is juechi all right?" Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes slightly, and the corners of his beautiful mouth gradually filled with a deep smile. Gu Beichen tilted his head to his line of sight, "I''ve been thinking, why do you need the help of the Chen family if you want to take Mo''er away." "Why?" Shi Shaoqin is light, waiting for Gu Beichen to explain. Gu Beichen snorted coldly, "I''m afraid Jue Chi and you have made some conditions?!" Yes, yes. "Just, I don''t understand..." Gu Beichen''s eyes fell in front, "why is the Chen family now in its current state." When the words fell, Gu Beichen looked at Shi Shaoqin again. "Some people like to kill themselves..." Shi Shaoqin also kindly explained, "can I intervene to save them?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly and opened in an instant. He didn''t say anything, just got in the car, with the indifference under the roaring engine, leaving without a trace of delay Shi Shaoqin''s vision gradually deepened. After watching the car leave, he turned and entered the hotel. There was no sign of Jane mo. he went into the elevator and went to the floor of the presidential suite. Jane Mo gently stroked her stomach and leaned against the door. When she heard the elevator ring, she looked coldly and then took back her sight. Shi Shaoqin opened the door, looked at Jian Mo calmly and calmly, and then walked to his bedroom A smile slowly climbed to the corner of his mouth. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. While closing the door, he slowly opened his mouth: "does Gobi love wild lily look good?" Chapter 726 The voice of light eh came from behind, showing the gloom under the treacherous Jane Mo stopped and began to gnash her teeth to endure the famine force that was about to burst out in her body. "How about... I''ll show you tomorrow?" Shi Shaoqin said, "it''s a big piece. It''s very beautiful... Well, how about going to the piece that was first dyed red?" Jian Mo suddenly turned back and gritted his teeth at Shi Shaoqin. "Mo''er..." Shi Shaoqin went to Jian Mo and stopped in front of her. He smiled faintly, with a deep smile, and his voice became quiet and distant. "All good-looking things are dyed with blood... Understand?" "You think it''s blood stained," said Jane Mo coldly. "What I see is new hope." She said coldly, "still full of hot hope..." The smile on Shi Shaoqin''s face didn''t decrease, but he became familiar with Jian Mo''s sight "If people only want to see blood, it can only mean..." Jane Mo gritted her teeth and squeezed out between her teeth word by word. "His world is black... I can only feel sad for him!" With a cold hum, Jane Mo turned around and opened the bedroom door without stopping "By the way," Jane Mo didn''t look back, "you like peeping at others so much, not because you can''t get it and haven''t enjoyed it... So envy?" After that, Jian Mo looked back at Shi Shaoqin. With a mocking look on his face, he pushed the door open and looked back into the bedroom. Shi Shaoqin stood where he was and frowned slightly There is a touch of anger in the bottom of my eyes, but it''s not the cold Jue under the bloodthirsty... It''s a bit of anger that I react after being ignorant. ¡­¡­ In the airport, the private plane has been checked and waiting for takeoff. Gu Beichen looked back at the brightly lit airport shrouded in ink, and then coldly boarded the plane. On the plane, awei and four rationers were there. "Get down!" Gu Beichen opened his mouth faintly, his voice was calm, but he had nothing to say. The four people looked at each other, didn''t move, and looked at awei one after another "I only obey the orders of Qin Shao." Awei sneered at the corner of his mouth. "If you want me to go down, you can... Throw me down." "Do you think you are my opponent?" Gu Beichen snorted coldly. Awei raised his eyebrows. "I didn''t have a good time in Los Angeles that day... Why don''t I do it again before taking off?" His voice had just dropped, and the four people on standby had moved slightly and were ready to attack. Gu Beichen looked disdainful, indifferently took back his sight, turned around and took out his mobile phone... After his slender fingers quickly scratched on the screen, he calmly sat down in a seat. Awei''s face has been shrouded in haze. Gu Beichen''s disregard and disdain have angered him. The mobile phone vibrated in his pocket at the right time. Awei took it out coldly. Seeing that it was Shi Shaoqin''s, he picked it up and put it in his ear, "Qin Shao?" "All leave..." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes fell on the brightly lit city even after the early morning. "Since he refused my kindness, why should I bother?" The rhetorical question made awei look at Gu Beichen. Vaguely, his dark eyes were mixed with reluctance to continue the complexity. "Yes!" Awei answered respectfully. After Shi Shaoqin hung up, awei slowly dropped his hand. "Do you not want to, or disdain?" Awei gritted his teeth and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen glanced at him indifferently, "is there a difference?" He said lightly, with a cold sneer of indifference, "I have never looked down on the ink palace." "Gu Beichen!" Awei gritted his teeth. Gu Beichen ignored him, but said coldly, "the plane is about to take off. Why... Are you going to invite you down?" Awei didn''t answer or move. After a while, he looked back coldly and stepped off the plane. The four men silently followed awei away. After getting off the plane, they all looked back. "Brother Wei, can he go alone?" Awei sneered, "we may not follow. What do you think?" Three things... In two months. Hehe Awei smiled coldly. Even if there were them, they might not be able to complete it within two months. Gu Beichen himself? Isn''t it a joke! "Then..." "Don''t forget, he can use the Dragon owl." Awei said coldly, and his eyes became fierce. But I don''t know whether it''s because Gu Beichen "drove" away, or because even at this time, Gu Beichen still doesn''t want to fight side by side with him! The sound of the plane''s gears rubbing against the ground broke the silence of the morning and night. Gu Beichen looked out of the small window. Santiago, which was farther and farther away from his line of sight, gradually narrowed his eagle eyes How could he give Shi Shaoqin the opportunity to leave awei and deliberately detain his actions? Secretly cold hissed, Gu Beichen pulled back his sight, and a pair of ink pupils burst out a cold and fierce light. Night, no matter how long, will pass. The pain is in pain, and it will heal one day When dawn came, Jane Mo got up with some heavy body. She cried so much last night that her eyes were swollen like fish bubble eyes. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly at Jian Mo, put the milk opposite, then took his mobile phone and dialed the phone, "send some women''s Sunglasses..." "..." Jian Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and looked at Shi Shaoqin, eating without talking. "Not afraid of poison?" Shi Shaoqin looked at the milk in Jian Mo''s hand as if to make Jian Mo uncomfortable. "That''s what I just poured." Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin again. He still didn''t speak and drank the milk. Shi Shaoqin frowned invisibly, as if he didn''t adapt to Jian Mo''s state today. Glasses are delivered quickly. They are all new and suitable for Jane foam face. "Pick one and put it on," ordered Shi Shaoqin. "Your eyes are so ugly." Jian Mo glanced at Shi Shaoqin coldly, glanced away and looked as if she didn''t intend to pay attention to him. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were deep. He took a pair of semi Tan sunglasses and put them on Jian Mo, "go to the airport after eating." Jian Mo didn''t take off his glasses willfully, but didn''t talk to Shi Shaoqin. As for where to go, she doesn''t care... Anyway, ah Chen can find her wherever she is. "You think..." Shi Shaoqin suddenly looked at Jian Mo and smiled. "As long as you don''t speak, you can know something without me?" Jane Mo frowned and was angry in her eyes under sunglasses. "Mo''er..." Shi Shaoqin''s smile deepened a bit. "It''s boring to wait for him. How about... I''ll tell you his story later on the journey?" "How can there be such a person you hate in this world!" Jane Mo could not help gnashing her teeth and said, "I want to listen to ah Chen''s story. I don''t need you to tell it!" Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s angry appearance and immediately "hahaha" smiled Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and knew she had been fooled by Shi Shaoqin! Chapter 727 Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo, and his mood seemed to be better, and his smile covered the whole handsome face. Jian Mo hummed coldly and continued to eat silently Since ah Chen can safely hand her over to Shi Shaoqin, it shows that Shaoshi will not treat her well at least during the period when ah Chen works. Of course, I''m afraid playing with her like this will only worsen. "I don''t know who is childish!" Jane Mo muttered and continued to eat. However, the color of sunglasses blocked the light of the line of sight, and Jane Mo tore it off with some annoyance. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. "Will your eyes cry like this and appear in front of Chen wantonly?" "That depends on what period..." Jane Mo said lazily, "if it is..." Suddenly, her voice paused, the corners of her mouth pulled a fake smile and looked at Shi Shaoqin, fanning her swollen eyes, "even if I say, you who have no feelings will not understand..." The disdain under ridicule shows an undisguised pity. Isn''t it ridiculous for a cold-blooded person without feelings to talk about fun with her?! "..." Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, and there was an obvious gloom on his handsome face. Jian Mo ignored Shi Shaoqin and continued to eat. However, because she was depressed, she didn''t eat much "When will you leave?" Jane Mo''s question had no temperature. "Anytime!" Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin, got up and went to the bedroom to change her clothes... She didn''t ink, normal speed. Since you have to face it, don''t be timid... This is Jane Mo''s most direct understanding of life over the years. It is still a comfortable private plane. Even if flying in the air, everything feels like walking on the ground. When he came, there was Mosen. When he returned, there were only Shi Shaoqin and Jian mo... Jian Mo didn''t care about these. With a pen in her hand, she found the paper and sketched something on the paper at will Shi qinzai didn''t know how to deal with some things, but Shaoxin didn''t know how to deal with them. Turn your head and look at Jane mo Her mouth was filled with a shallow smile, the pen kept sketching on the paper, and the whole person exuded a charming breath. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly. He simply leaned lazily on the seat and looked at Jian Mo like this. Jian Mo Xu drew too seriously. He didn''t find Shi Shaoqin looking at her again. He just laughed deeper and deeper with the designed things and the corners of his mouth. When the last stroke fell, Jane Mo picked up the paper, looked up and down, left and right, and raised her eyebrows with satisfaction "What did you draw?" Shi Shaoqin asked faintly. Jane Mo glanced at him lightly. The smile at the corners of her mouth was immediately stopped. Then she hummed, carefully folded the paper and put it in her pocket. Shi Shaoqin was not angry, but looked at Jian Mo, which was very interesting "If I were you," Shi Shaoqin said leisurely, "I would never do something others dare not do in front of me." Jian Mo glanced at Shi Shaoqin again and didn''t bother to talk to him. "Haven''t you heard that... It''s too alien to attract other people''s attention?" The light voice spilled over Shi Shaoqin''s lips and showed invisible pressure. Jian Mo frowned and looked at Shi Shaoqin, "sorry, I don''t want to attract your attention at all." She looked back, looked ahead and said calmly, "if I gave you any wrong message, I''m sorry... Please cut off your thoughts, too." "Why, do you think I like you?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, with a mockery in his voice. "I won''t be so narcissistic..." Jane Mo took out another piece of paper. "Of course," she tilted her head to the sight of Shang Shi Shaoqin, "if you really like me, I will only feel thrilled." "..." Shi Shaoqin frowned again, and his eyes gradually became deep and bottomless. Jane doesn''t know how long the plane has been flying in the sky. Just feel for a long time She just ate two meals and didn''t break any snacks... She also slept because she was tired. When the captain delivered the sound of arriving at the destination, Jane morcai opened the small window and looked out The blue sea is like a layer of finely broken gold in the sun The vast expanse of the sea makes people feel small. Jane Mo subconsciously clenched her hand. She didn''t know if it was because she was thrown into the sea last time. Now she has some subconscious resistance to the sea. "Where is this?" Jane Mo looked at a place like an ancient European castle. "Ink palace!" "Mo palace?" Jian Mo made a sound and looked at Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin just made a faint "um" sound and did not continue to explain. The plane landed smoothly on the apron, and Jian Mo got off the plane with Shi Shaoqin in doubt. There is also a private airliner on such a large apron, as well as a helicopter... And something similar to the appearance of a fighter. Jane Mo looked around instinctively and curiously. This is an island back to the mountain, with a large castle like building in the middle and some places similar to factories. Her sight finally fell on the beach, where there was a very strange ship, which looked like a small warship. Jane Mo''s eyebrows are more tight. These things seem to be divorced from reality in her cognition. Looking at the endless sea and the ancient castle, Jane Mo gradually frowned How do you feel... Familiar with this place?! Jane moju the lower lip corner and looked around again When the sun fell on the sea somewhere, her heart suddenly pulled ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen got off the plane and looked at the name of the airport ahead Melbourne?! Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deep. He didn''t think too much. He just got on the battery car and went to the airport. "This is what Qin Shao asked me to give you..." the driver took a file bag out from one side. "Cook will hold a charity reception this weekend." Gu Beichen took it indifferently, didn''t speak, and didn''t even open the file bag. "Good luck..." the driver said with a smile after putting down Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen left calmly, turned on his mobile phone and sent a text message to Xiao Jing: send the information of cook, the richest man in Melbourne to my email. The text message has just been typed and hasn''t been sent... Gu Beichen suddenly stopped. The eagle''s eyes suddenly became fierce, but it was only an instant that they recovered their indifference. Slowly raise your head and look up at a man in front... Four eyes are opposite, which is vaguely familiar under strangeness. And this familiarity is the momentum emanating from each other The man came forward, "Gu Beichen?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen didn''t hide it. The man''s lips were slightly hooked, "Mr. Xiao is already waiting for you..." "Mr. Xiao?" Gu Beichen said softly, "which Mr. Xiao?" Chapter 728 Gu Beichen gathered his eyes slightly and looked at the man. Subconsciously, he thought it was the adoptive father of the Dragon owl, that is, the person who adopted and trained Xiao Jing and his five. "Go, don''t you know?" The corners of the man''s mouth showed a trace of coldness. Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised an arc like nothing, "what if I don''t go?" The man didn''t change his face, "whatever..." He stared deeply at Beichen, then turned around and took the lead in walking to the parked car in front... He didn''t care at all. Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned his sword eyebrow. As his eyes grew deeper, he stepped forward. The man didn''t seem surprised that Gu Beichen would follow, opened the door and waited for him to get on the bus. There was no one on the bus except a driver. After Gu Beichen and the man got on the bus, they started the car and went to the city Along the way, no one spoke. However, no matter the driver or the man, or Gu Beichen, no one''s face spilled any expression. The car drove for two hours before stopping at what looked like a private club "Mr. Xiao is waiting for you at the golf course." The man didn''t intend to get off. Gu Beichen got off the bus and entered the club "Is that Mr. Gu?" The service staff saw Gu Beichen and asked in fluent English Gu Beichen nodded indifferently. "Mr. Xiao is waiting for you inside..." the service staff motioned, "please follow me." Gu Beichen stepped calmly and followed the waiter into the club After passing through the luxurious lobby and leisure bar, we arrive at the golf course behind the club. "Mr. Xiao is over there, Mr. Gu, please!" The service staff just pointed to the next direction, nodded with a smile, turned and left. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes slightly gathered and looked at the direction just pointed by the waiter, and then walked forward with indifferent and steady steps Before people walked in, they saw a figure waving with a club Gu Beichen stopped and looked at the man in casual clothes and cap, waiting for him to swing his club... His eyes glanced at the flying golf ball. "How was the fight?" A calm voice came through. Gu Beichen opened his mouth in an unassuming manner: "some!" The man ''ha ha'' smiled and turned to Gu Beichen. "I''m asking you how I played this ball?" "Although I met Mr. Xiao for the first time, I still didn''t recognize your question." Gu Beichen is indifferent to him. With a smile on his face, Mr. Xiao threw the club to the caddie aside and walked to Gu Beichen, "guess who I am?" "I didn''t guess before I came, but I almost confirmed it after seeing..." "Oh?" Mr. Xiao said softly. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes showed a faint smile. "I thought it was the adoptive father of boss long..." he didn''t hide, "but I think you should be Xiao Mu, Mr. Xiao!" Xiao Mu looked at Gu Beichen with deep eyes, neither admitting nor denying it. "Play a game over there," Xiao Mu looked at the time, "well, it''s almost time for dinner, just in time." "Good!" Gu Beichen didn''t shirk and answered. XK is the strongest intelligence organization in the world. There, you only have information you can''t buy, but there is no information they can''t find. However, such a mysterious organization is inextricably related to the dragon family. Gu Beichen hasn''t played golf for a long time, but he doesn''t have a hand at all... All his movements are controlled calmly. Xiao Mu looked at Gu Beichen with deep eyes and smiled at the corners of his mouth. You came and I went several times. Finally, Gu Beichen won. "Your boy is really a little rude..." Xiao Mu said with a smile. Gu Beichen was quite respectful. "If I can''t win Mr. Xiao, I''m afraid I can''t take the news from boss long and you." "Well, I like talking to smart people." Xiao Mu motioned Gu Beichen to go to the restaurant together. "Did ah Xiao tell you?" "No." Xiao Mu sighed softly and said with some sigh, "seeing your fearlessness now is like seeing our youth." Gu Beichen silently accompanied Xiao Mu and entered the restaurant. "XK''s news has always been based on the mood to bid..." Xiao Mu washed his hands and sat down, "but since Mr. long, XK and the dragon family have a tacit understanding." "I understand." Gu Beichen also washed his hands, "so, just that game, I have to win." The dragon family can''t buy news from XK, although there are no regulations Long Xiao asked Gu Beichen for this news. In the end, Gu Beichen had to buy it himself. Xiao Mu looked at Gu Beichen with satisfaction, "you are very calm..." Gu Beichen poured tea for Xiao Mu himself. If you count from the Dragon owl, Xiao Mu is also his elder In terms of some positions, it is difficult for the rich or the top of power in many countries to see the twilight side. XK can grasp the secrets of so many people and things, and still stands firm... The successors of each generation are not ordinary people. "In fact, even without my news, you can do it this time." Xiao Mu took a sip of tea. "But I don''t have so much time..." Gu Beichen said calmly. "Now for me, if I can save a little time, I can save a little." "The luminous diamond is on the daughter of Cook''s most unpopular mistress..." Xiao Mu motioned to serve, "that woman is not simple. I''m afraid it takes some effort to get it." With that, he motioned to the people on one side to take the information Gu Beichen didn''t open it after receiving it. It''s no surprise that Xiao Mu knows when he will arrive in Melbourne and even what his purpose is. The luminous diamond he guessed right. It should be something Shi Shaoqin lost when he was very young. He wants to find it. It''s no surprise for the discerning man. Xiao Mu sighed, "Shi Shaoqin was innocent after so much experience." After a pause, "I hope you can solve it peacefully this time." "I also hope..." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips, but there was a cold breath in his voice. Xiao Mu''s mouth was always filled with a faint smile. He looked at Gu Beichen and his sight was deep. No wonder Shi Shaoqin didn''t let go If at that time, he met Gu Beichen who came out of the Mo palace, I''m afraid... He really couldn''t go back. Gu Beichen has the shadow of Mr. long in his body, or in his blood... If he could have brought him back to XK, he should be the best successor. 13012 18264 5007 25113 9162 27551 2613 20960 28326 12625 17879 4794 8756 18305 15562 568 7343 10138 10097 27983 15981 4721 18264 18581 14068 With XK''s information, he can reduce the time of this matter by at least half. Chapter 729 "This is the car Mr. Xiao prepared for you." The man who picked up Gu Beichen at the airport handed the car key to Gu Beichen, "the hotel is ready, and the car will take you there." Gu Beichen glanced at the car key in the man''s hand, and the eagle''s eyes narrowed slowly In Melbourne, there is an emperor''s business. Even if not, he doesn''t need to be arranged by others If this is Mr. Xiao''s kindness... Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes suddenly opened, and two sharp lights burst out from the depths of the ink pupil. The man didn''t say much, just waiting for Gu Beichen to take the car key away "Thank Mr. Xiao for me." While Gu Beichen spoke, he took the car key in the man''s hand and immediately got on the car to see him off. The man turned around and left the club. Xiao Mu is drinking tea. I don''t know if it is the precipitation of years. Now he looks like a leisurely person who enjoys life. In the crowd, who knows... The secret of how many people this person controls. "Mr. Xiao made an exception to him..." the man seemed dissatisfied. Xiao Mu glanced at him lightly and laughed, "I like him. It''s a gift..." "That car is not cheap." The man said it mildly. The car given to Gu Beichen is only one in the world How many people robbed?! Cook''s daughter meilang is also one of them. Even... It''s a great pity that the car didn''t come to hand. The car was finally won by the daughter of a rich man in Dubai... Such a person can''t sell the car at all. Give her a message for free, as long as the car Mr. Xiao seems to have taken advantage of this meeting gift, but only the parties know who took advantage of it. ¡­¡­ Jane Mo walked slowly into the bedroom and looked around... Frowning slightly. If Gu Beichen is so rich that he is already a figure at the top of the pyramid in Los Angeles, even with the blessing of the emperor''s industry, he is the richest person in the world. So, Shao Shi is the kind of low-key invisible rich. The room, or everything inside, is full of two words... Luxury! Such luxury is not a local tyrant at first sight, but a low-key beauty... More points will be less, and less points will be less. Jian Mo is also more aware of Shao Shi''s abnormal psychology of pursuing perfection Slightly frown, why does such a person who has an obsession with perfection want to destroy beauty?! "I live opposite," Shi Shaoqin said quietly. "You can go in all areas here, except the factory..." Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin and didn''t speak. "Of course," Shi Shaoqin said with a thin smile, "I don''t mind if you want to go." Jane Mo frowned, "you want me to go, I''m not interested!" She''s not stupid. When she was in Amsterdam, she knew what Shao Shi did Even if she hasn''t seen what those factories do, she has seen it on TV. "You have a rest first," Shi Shaoqin said faintly and turned around. "Dinner time will call you." "Oh, by the way..." Shi Shaoqin stopped as soon as he turned around. "You don''t have to worry. Someone will monitor you, so if you want to escape, as long as you have the ability." Jane Mo sneered, "I will only wait for ah Chen to pick me up. I won''t run away." After a pause, Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin sarcastically, "also, you don''t monitor me because you know I have no ability to leave here?" Shi Shaoqin smiled with an unfathomable smile. "When people are unknown, they will impulsively make something beyond their ability... Because people always think they are the exception." Jane Mo snorted coldly. "Mo''er, you really attract me..." Shi Shaoqin said quietly, as if floating from a distance. Jane Mo was surprised and frowned with resistance. "No one here can escape..." Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth quietly and his voice was cold for a few minutes. "Except one..." he paused deliberately, raised Jian Mo''s interest, and then slowly said the second half of the sentence with a vicious smile at the corner of his mouth, "... Gu Beichen!" When Shi Shaoqin called out his name, he slowly spit it out word by word At the same time, even the sight of Jian Mo became dark. Jane Mo''s heart suddenly startled, and her pupils spread... Even her breath became unstable. She closed her lips tightly and tried to restrain the impulsive emotion under curiosity, so as not to lose her reason. Shi Shaoqin smiled evil at the corners of his mouth, stared deeply at Jian Mo in his eyes, and then turned and left Without the pressure from Shi Shaoqin, the air was much calmer. Jane Mo closed her eyes and took a few deep breaths before opening her eyes "Ah!" Jane Mo suddenly screamed and subconsciously stepped back. However, because the steps were a little vain, her calf suddenly cramped, and she staggered back J stands in place and looks curiously at Jane Mo''s funny actions. Jane Mo''s face became bad. She tried to stabilize her body, but because of her big stomach, she couldn''t balance at all "Oh" came. Jane Mo hit the back cabinet, and her face was distorted by the pain. There was fine sweat on her forehead. Jane Mo supported the cabinet and looked at J The big boy looked strange and ignorant, as if he didn''t know what had happened to him. "Why did you suddenly lose your footing?" J asked. Jane Mo gritted her teeth. "Who are you and why are you suddenly standing in front of me?" "I''m J..." J raised his eyebrows and sat down on the sofa. "Qin Shao brought back a woman with a big stomach... I''ll have a look." After a pause, J asked curiously, "is your child Qin Shao?" "Whose child is that pervert?!" Jane Mo said angrily. J smiled. "Is that Gu Beichen''s?" "..." Jane Mo looked at J with a frown. She looked less than 20 years old and spoke a little naive. Such a person seemed to be out of place here. "Sorry, I''m going to rest, please leave..." Jane Mo endured the pain and didn''t want to argue and explain with a child. J didn''t move. "Hey, does Qin Shao like you?" He raised his eyebrows, his eyes lit up, and sat up excitedly because of his thoughts. "Otherwise, how could he bring you back?" Jane Mo almost collapsed, closed her eyes and moved her lips. Just when she wanted to speak, she was interrupted by J. "But are you pregnant with Gu Beichen''s child?" J looked at Jian Mo''s big belly, "Qin Shao won''t want this child?!" "I don''t care who you are?" Jane Mo also couldn''t care about the pain. Looking at J, she said, "you go out now... Go out!" Chapter 730 J has no intention to move at all. Even, he lies lazily on the sofa again "Don''t be so cruel and repulsive to me..." J looked at Jian Mo innocently. "If you want to see the little boy in the school or Gu Beichen in the future, it depends on me." Jane Mo frowned immediately and looked at J coldly. She found out that she couldn''t treat the boy in front of her as a child None of the people around Shao Shi is normal! "You are now..." J suddenly smiled, as if he didn''t see the expression that Jane Mo hated him. "Do you want to see the child in the school?" Jane Mo immediately bit her teeth and wanted to let J out, but she also wanted to see Jane Jie "Just say it if you want to see it. It''s like constipation." J skim. "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, which was like a spineful refusal, but when she reached her mouth, it became, "what do you think?" J ''rubbed'' and stood up, "you wait for me!" Before Jane Mo spoke, J had disappeared Jane Mo rubbed her back waist and was a little frightened. Fortunately, there was something in the back just now. If you fall Jane Mo didn''t dare to continue to think. For Xiao Yan, there have been many storms since she was pregnant. Now she is about to have a baby. She can''t tolerate any accident. J came back quickly, holding a notebook in his hand. "Come and come, please!" Jane Mo walked over with her waist on her back and sat down next to J. she saw his fingers beating on the keyboard quickly, and a string of strings crossed her eyes like flying. When the sound of "Di" came, J said, "wait... I''ll search the location." Jane Mo looked at the scene of Spencer school on half the screen and frowned slightly, "are you controlling the monitoring of the school?" "Otherwise?" J fingers kept saying, "I also sent the video on your mobile phone that day..." Jane Mo glanced at J coldly and didn''t speak. "Done!" After a while, J said proudly, pressed the Enter key, and saw that the video occupied the whole computer screen Jane Jie is having a musical instrument class. He has just finished playing the music of his homework, got off his stool and raised his eyebrows one by one. One by one, the one who gave him a good face compared with him, and then unfaithfully patted Xiao Yi sitting in front, "is Xiao Jie playing well?" "Yes!" Xiao Yi answered. 11. Her face was full of music, as if she played well and was praised. "Unfortunately, it has nothing to do with you." Xiao Yi looked back and said solemnly. One by one, his face immediately petrified and glared at Xiao Yi fiercely. "If Xiao Jie plays well, I''ll be happy. Does it have half a dime to do with you?" Xiao Yi is a child who has experienced the darkness of life. He is different from the child who grew up in love though he is a single parent She was too lazy to argue with her, but when Jane Jie came over, she said, "there will be a climbing activity in the next third grade, will you go?" "Good!" Jane Jie nodded and then looked at one by one, "are you going?" "I''m afraid of being tall..." frowned one by one, "but I can go and cheer you on." Jian Jie smiled and nodded, and looked at Xiao Yi. The black pupil flashed cunning Jian Mo looked at Jian Jie like this and felt unspeakable sadness in her heart When I was in England, although I had heavy schoolwork, I could accompany me at least every day. Back in Los Angeles, Jay had to mature and take care of herself too early... Her mother, to some extent, failed. J needless to say, Jane Mo keeps linking video signals at the fastest speed From the three small figures going to the activity area after class to Jian Jie and Xiao Yi starting rock climbing under the guidance of the teacher, each picture clearly falls on the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes. "Want to see Gu Beichen?" J suddenly raised his eyebrow. Jane Mo glanced at J, didn''t speak, but her eyes were filled with urgency. J suddenly smiled and heard the sound of "pa". He closed the computer, then got up, glanced at the confused Jane Mo and said, "I won''t show you..." Then he leaned over to pick up the computer and left proudly Jane Mo was in a state of bewilderment. Then her eyes darkened and she whispered, "are all geniuses weird?" This j, at first glance, is the one who is very good at computers. Is her milk bag too smart and arrogant? Like many mothers, Jian Mo always fantasized about what they would look like when their children were young Gently stroking her stomach, Jian Mo felt Xiao Yan''s occasional interaction with her, but her thoughts drifted away When can their family really be together?! Chen, I don''t know where you are now... But for me, now is the distance between the two ends of the world. And at such a distance, I miss you ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen sat on the sofa on the hotel terrace, his slender fingers crossed the mobile phone screen and opened the photo album There are not many photos in it, only two kinds. One is that Jian Mo or Jian Jie sent a text message to save it, and the other... It was secretly taken at night when he hugged Mo''er. Now, these have become the only way for him to miss her. Open a photo. On the picture, Jane Mo has a smiling sleeping face in her mouth because of her dream She is very beautiful, and now she exudes the aura of motherhood. Such a shallow smile softens Gu Beichen''s heart. Suddenly A phone came in and covered the picture. "Third brother, have you gone to find Shi Shaoqin?" As soon as the phone was connected, Lin Nan''s nervous and worried voice came, "how can you find him? What does he want to do? Shit... It makes me anxious. I took the whole special combat brigade to kill him!" Gu Beichen smiled at his thin lips, "this soldier has been a long time. Why is he more and more like a ruffian?" "Third brother, are you still in the mood to joke?" Lin Nan gnashed his teeth. "Didn''t boss long and his second brother take care of you?" "South, it''s always going to be solved." Gu Beichen said in a voice without much emotion. Lin Nan put his hand in his waist and walked around the training ground. "But..." he clenched his teeth angrily. "Shi Shaoqin''s purpose is to destroy you... Don''t you go back and hit him?" Gu Beichen''s eyes became deep. "There is no eternal strong man in this world..." his eagle eyes narrowed gradually. "I never thought he would give up." "What do you mean?" Lin stopped to the south. "Who laughs to the end, not necessarily..." Gu Beichen didn''t explain, but there was a faint smell of danger in his voice. Lin Nan couldn''t help shivering. Across the wireless wave, he seemed to feel Gu Beichen''s strategizing and killing breath. However, he is still worried "Third brother," Lin Nannan said in a dignified voice, "Shi Shaoqin will certainly want to use this thing to make you betray your relatives..." Chapter 731 Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually became deep and bottomless. Looking at the line of sight outside, it was even more murky. Shi Shaoqin doesn''t know what he wants to do But so what? If he wants to give Mo''er, Xiao Jie and Xiao Yan... Even a peaceful growth environment for his children in the future, even if more pain is waiting for him, he can only face it and can''t shrink back. "Mo''er''s trust, your trust..." Gu Beichen opened his thin lips and said, "... That''s enough." Lin Nan''s face was heavy and his sight fell on the small team training 400m rapid fire in front. "Third brother, I have never questioned you." If he is firm, he will be less tenacious and domineering when he leads the army. What''s more, the childishness of the little brother behind Gu Beichen Gu Beichen gently raised an arc around his mouth. Although the smile was bitter, it was really sent out by his heart. There was a knock on the door. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and opened the door. When the door opened, Xiao Nan looked lazy and leaned on the door with her arms around her chest "Hi!" Xiao Nan said hello, and without waiting for Gu Beichen to say anything, the man had got up and walked in. "Why are you here?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Xiao Nan shrugged. "Erjing doesn''t trust you. I''ll come here alone." She said casually, "but after I came here, I heard that you were dealing with a woman. It seems that I''m not suitable." Gu Beichen shook his head with a smile, "and then?" "Mind if I wait for you in San Francisco?" Xiao Nan took the cup, poured a glass of red wine and drank lazily. "What does dragon boss mean?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and the eagle''s eyes became deep. Xiao Nan smiled. "The relationship between brother Xiao and the dragon family is tense now. Chen Shao thinks he will intervene openly?" Gu Beichen sneered, "why don''t you say that he wants to use this thing to put pressure on the dragon family?" Xiao Nan smiled brightly, "you and brother Xiao are brothers." After a pause, she continued, "brother Xiao said, Shi Shaoqin''s dirty water this time, just throw it on me. As for whether Chen Shaoqin can jump out of this circle, it depends on his luck." Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but went to the window with both hands... Looking at Melbourne, a city full of cultural heritage. "A month!" Gu Beichen slowly opened his mouth and heard any emotion in his voice, "I''ll end everything and take Mo''er home for childbirth!" Xiao Nan glanced down and slightly raised her eyebrows and suggested, "in fact, I think it''s better to pour dirty water on Mr. Xiao." Gu Beichen glances at Xiao Nan. She smiled like a fox, "what I said is... Xiao Mu, Mr. Xiao!" How to involve XK in this matter may be the best solution. Not only can Chen Shao retreat, but even brother Xiao may achieve his wish and kill with one stone. Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Nan''s line of sight deeper, looking straight at her heart. "Whether it''s the dragon family or XK," Gu Beichen''s voice was low and forced, "who do you think is simple?" If you want to set fire to them, I''m afraid the final result is to set yourself on fire. ¡­¡­ Jane Mo is tickled by J. He doesn''t talk big at first sight. Even if he can''t be around Jane Jie and ah Chen, it''s good to see them occasionally. Unfortunately, she knows very well that when a person shows too much hope for something, it is often controlled by others. "J''s temper is a little strange..." a gentle voice came, "it''s all right. You''d better not provoke him." Jian Mo looked sideways and saw Shi Jue Chi at the door, but he was sitting in a wheelchair. "Juechi!" Jane was surprised. "It''s me..." Shi Jue Chi Wenrun smiled and came in with a wheelchair. "I heard that Shaoqin brought a pregnant woman back, and thought it was you..." he said, his look dimmed, "but I don''t want it to be you." I haven''t seen her for more than half a year. Seeing the man who took her to escape again, Jane Mo has mixed feelings in her heart. "How do you..." Jane Mo looked at the wheelchair and didn''t continue. "I just had an operation recently," Shi juechi didn''t hide. "The operation was very successful, but my body hasn''t recovered and I can''t exercise too much." Jane Mo chuckled her lips and frowned because she was worried. "How did you come back with Shaoqin?" Shi Jue Chi asked casually, and then said, "by the way, his name is Shi Shaoqin, my twin brother!" "Twins?" Jane Mo was a little surprised. After all, two people don''t look alike. Even their personalities are two extremes. A kind, gentle, a cruel and cold-blooded! "We are fraternal twins." Shi Jue Chi''s explanation with a smile. Jane Mo is a little surprised. After all, the probability is still very small "Shi Shaoqin..." Jian Mo suddenly murmured, "Shao Shi..." Jian Mo glanced and felt that Shi Shaoqin was not very childish at some time. "Why did you come back with Shaoqin?" Shi juechi asked again, "how could Beichen agree?" Jian Moshen sighed, starting from receiving the text message from Shi Shaoqin, going to Malaysia with Chen Zhaobai, and then going around to the Mo palace, picking the key points to Shi juechi. "You and Beichen already have a child?" Shi Jue Chi frowned and asked again. Jane moru lips, nodded, "I was pregnant before I left Los Angeles. I''m not willing to kill it." Shi Jue Chi sighed No wonder Shaoqin would agree to his terms. Mo Mo has another child, which is enough to let Mo Mo follow his guidance So that, in the end, Shaoqin became a "rescue" from Chen Zhaobai to some extent. "Jue Chi..." "Huh?" Shi Jue Chi Qingyi. Jian Mo endured and asked, "Shao Shi... Oh, it''s Shi Shaoqin. What kind of person is he?" Shi Jue Chi looked at Jian Mo and didn''t answer immediately. "I''m very worried..." Jian Mo said with fear in her heart. "I''m worried that what ah Chen is going to do this time is not simple." Shi Jue Chi guessed something, but after glancing at Jian Mo''s big belly, he didn''t say. "You don''t need to think about anything now. You just need to raise the fetus safely and wait for Beichen... Don''t worry about him!" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and gently stroked her stomach, "I know." After a pause, her eyes looked forward without focus, "I''m afraid that the final waiting will be empty... In that case, I think I won''t live." Shi juechi was silent and said slowly: "Shaoqin will not be willing to have an accident in Beichen..." Jian Mo looked sideways at Shi Jue Chi, with a blank line of sight. "Some things are inconvenient to tell you from me..." Shi juechi sighed lightly. Jane Mo''s mouth moved back and forth. She hasn''t spoken yet. A cold voice came from the door "Why don''t I tell you?" Chapter 732 Jian Mo looked at the door. Shi Shaoqin didn''t know when to stand there. "Don''t you think such behavior is very obscene?" Chi Mo looked at Shi Jian with worried eyes. But Shi Shaoqin didn''t get angry as Shi Jue Chi expected. Instead, he said, "the door is open. It''s one or two... This is my place. What do I do? I need to ''steal''?" There was a mockery in the light voice. Jane Mo hissed coldly and took back her sight to one side. For Shi Shaoqin, if he wakes up from "amnesia", he is afraid. Now, because she was in San Diego with Gu Beichen one day, she was disgusted and disgusted with him physically. But it happens that the people you dislike will haunt you from time to time, disgusting you! "Since I don''t sleep, I''ll go out with you!" Shi Shaoqin said kindly. "Shaoqin..." Shi juechi frowned slightly at Shi Shaoqin. He obviously felt that Mo Mo was disgusted with Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin looked at Shi Jue Chi calmly, "you should have a rest and have dinner together." Shi juechi was in a dignified mood. After looking at Jian Mo with worry, she said, "you promised me..." "Isn''t she fine with the baby in her stomach?" Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "I brought her back because Chen sent her to me, didn''t I?" When he said this, he made it clear that Jian Mo had told Shi juechi what had happened. Shi juechi is not surprised that he will be seen through by Shi Shaoqin In the whole process, Shaoqin did not do anything directly. Although he controlled all this "I''ll go too!" Suddenly, J leaned out his head and looked at Jian Mo, "I''ve never seen anyone as funny as you in the Mo palace." Mo palace can''t find anyone who can fight Qin Shao... It''s so interesting. Jane Mo pulled a fake smile. Before she said anything to refuse, she heard J say, "take me for a walk. I''ll try to let you see Gu Beichen at the weekend. How about it?" Such conditions are so tempting that Jane Mo can''t resist them at all. Besides, she doesn''t feel sleepy at all. It''s good for her body to go out for a walk Shi juechi''s face was a little dignified. J did what he wanted and only listened to Shaoqin''s words in the Mo palace. Shaoqin doesn''t care much about his wayward behavior many times. He''s just happy However, there was an unspeakable treachery in the atmosphere at the moment, as if there was something that didn''t need to be done deliberately, but it was related to the kind of overwhelming feeling. And... Shaoqin''s attitude towards Mo Mo is so strange! Shi Shaoqin and Shi juechi looked up. They just took back and turned around at a glance and took the lead in leaving Walking, he said, "there are clothes and shoes in the dressing room on the left. Change them yourself... I''ll wait for you downstairs." J didn''t move and wanted to wait here, but Shi Shaoqin looked back and hurried away with him, "hurry up!" Before leaving, I didn''t forget to urge. Shi juechi''s mood became more and more dignified, but there was no definite thing, and he didn''t say... Otherwise, he just added Jian Mo''s troubles, which was not good for pregnant women. "I live downstairs," said Shi juechi, with a soft soothing voice. "If you''re bored, you can find me." Jane Mo nodded with a smile, waiting in such a strange environment She should be grateful for someone who knows and makes her comfortable and right. Shi juechi steered the wheelchair to the outside, walked to the door, suddenly remembered something, looked back at Jian Mo and said, "Beichen, don''t worry, let Shaoqin bring you back, I''m afraid it''s calculated that you will directly return to the Mo palace." After a pause, he said leisurely, "and I''m... Here!" Jane Mo''s heart twitched suddenly. The nose is slightly sour, and the eyes are slightly red in an instant Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo, with a faint emotion suppressed in the depths of her sight. "Although I really get along with him face to face only once..." Shi Jue Chi said with a smile, "but I can understand him. He is a man with long feelings and knows what he wants." The bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes was covered with a thin layer of water mist, but it only touched the corners of her mouth. "He loves you," Shi juechi''s voice echoed in the air, "with his life in love with you." Jane Mo sniffed, nodded and signaled that she understood. "So... No matter what happens, you have to believe it." After that, Shi juechi stared at Jian Mo deeply, then took back his sight, controlled the wheelchair and left In the secluded and long corridor, the dim wall lamp reflects the gloomy under the harmony. Shi juechi pressed down the elevator, with an unspeakable dignity on his gentle face. He didn''t know what Shaoqin would do... But he knew very well Shaoqin''s persistence to Gu Beichen. It''s a kind of loneliness in the dark, longing for another "he" to accompany him! ¡­¡­ Melbourne''s weekends, like many international metropolises, are full of nightlife. The charity party prepared by cook, the richest man, has not only attracted attention locally, but also attracted many famous collectors in the world. Gu Beichen looked at the car parked in the underground parking lot of the hotel, his eyes were slightly deep, and his cold face was full of evil. Unlock, get in, start All the actions were done in one go. After a beautiful tail flick, the car drove away with the roar of the engine. The charity party was held in the most famous seven-star hotel in the local area, and the president of the emperor also came, which was quite surprising to the media. When he drove the only car that caused the global rich to compete for before, he made the media''s hand cramp when pressing the shutter. Mei Lang is wearing a rose gold intimate evening dress and the peach heart design of her bra, revealing her proud gully. She stood on the steps and looked at the perfect and exciting car with a touch of surprise in her eyes. When Gu Beichen got out of the car, she was slightly confused "A few days ago, I heard that McGrady gave this car to a man..." someone nearby shouted, "it''s him?!" Although Gu Beichen doesn''t walk around in foreign circles, the emperor''s name is not small. There are still many people who know him in the upper class circle. "Car hook people, people are more attractive!" Mei Lang said charmingly. "Why, do you want to eat?" Mei Lang smiled at the people next to him. He didn''t speak. He just turned around with the necessary eyes and advanced into the hotel The hotel is now overcrowded. Mei Lang summoned the waiter and whispered in his ear. Then he said with a smile, "the room is on the 44th floor... I like the Oriental saying ''I want to be immortal and die''." Then she looked away and looked at Gu Beichen who had just entered the door Spring breeze night is also what they say? This man... Should taste wonderful! Chapter 733 Gu Beichen glanced lightly at Mei Lang with theout too much eyes. He took his pocket with the one hand and entered reception indifferently Mellon''s mother was not favored by cook, but she was extremely favored herself. In addition, people are beautiful and their figure is comparable to world famous models. Naturally, many men covet her. But Gu Beichen''s indifferent glance, even calm and indifferent, did not make any waves, which could not help but make Mei Lang some dissatisfied "Remember, it''s him!" Mellon explained to the waiter. The waiter answered and Mellon entered the party. Gu Beichen''s arrival caused a lot of agitation Although he is not very active in foreign circles, Gu muhuai is a famous man. A while ago, Gu Beichen and Gu mohuai''s imperial power battle was also the focus of attention in the noble circle Gu Beichen, who had just taken over the throne for six or seven years, knocked down Gu muhuai, who had a foundation of more than 20 years. Naturally, everyone looked at him with even greater admiration. Especially seeing that he came alone today, thoughtful women and some rich people with daughters began to create opportunities for them. Gu Beichen grabbed the red wine cup and shuttled through the precious circle with ease. In the auction items discussed by you, occasionally someone will mention the luminous diamond that cook got a long time ago... Those with capital naturally hope to be in the auction line today. Gu Beichen raised his hand and sipped the red wine. The eagle''s eyes crossed Mei Lang who was talking to several celebrities, and then took back his sight indifferently. Mei Lang''s eyes never left Gu Beichen from the beginning. His every move fell into the bottom of his eyes, including the one that just glanced down and was indifferent. "Why, do you like it?" Someone asked Mellon. Mei Lang took the champagne and drank. Her flirtatious red lips showed the temptation of sexuality. Under a pair of deep eye sockets, her blue eyes were even more charming. "Oriental man, I haven''t tried yet..." Mei Lang raised his eyebrow. "I just don''t know my ability?" "Looks like a capable person!" Someone accosted, "if you add some dispensing products, it''s certainly not bad." Mei Lang looked at the speaker with deep meaning, "don''t worry, fierce material!" The women burst into laughter "Remember to share the war!" Someone said excitedly, "if it feels good, I think I can find some oriental men to feel it." The women laughed one by one Things in that regard are always open to Westerners. Naturally, the matter of "pleasing" two feelings also depends on the eye edge Gu Beichen''s appearance is not only handsome and extraordinary in the eyes of Oriental people, but also foreign people and extraordinary momentum. "Tut Tut, I really want to know what those women staring at Gu Beichen are talking about?" J ate potato chips and said with some bolts. Jane Mo is a woman. Although she doesn''t know what those women say, she guessed from their peeping look. "Attracting bees and butterflies all day..." see the dissatisfied lips. "Well, you know what they say?" J looked at Jian Mo curiously, "what did they say?" Jane Mo glanced at J lightly, "eat your potato chips well... What do adults do? What do children worry about so much?" "Hey, don''t preach to me!" J was immediately dissatisfied, and then closed his notebook, "if you have the ability, don''t let children help you!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and then pulled a fake smile, "I''m wrong. I shouldn''t think with conventional thinking when talking to a genius." J snorted coldly, picked up the computer and planned to leave. Jane morwei opened her mouth, looked at J and clenched her teeth, "kid, don''t push an inch." These days, J often came to play with her, and she found out his temper. It''s the one who coaxes him not to go and goes backwards... To put it bluntly, genius is a genius, but he''s still a child. Follow your hair! J holds the computer and proudly pads his toes. "Please, please... I''ll continue to let you take care of Beichen." As soon as Jane Mo listened, she pulled down her face and got up... Going to leave the media room. "What are you doing?" J was stunned. Jane Mo glanced at him. "Since I don''t have to see it, of course I should go." "J was completely stunned. Since he was a child, he was different from others. Later, because he liked playing with computers and had no friends... Others also thought he was strange and didn''t like playing with him. Later, he came to Mo palace. Although Qin Shao was very smart, he had a lot of things and no one played with him... Others were afraid of him. Although he didn''t know why he was afraid of him, no one played with him anyway. Now it''s not easy to have a person who plays with him and is not afraid that he is still interesting, but he won''t let him every time! "Don''t regret your leaving..." J held back for a long time before he said a word. Jane Mo burst out laughing. J blushed and even stared angrily Looking at J, Jian Mo always feels like she sees milk bags or Xiaoyan in the future. If geniuses are lonely and lonely, she would rather they be ordinary. "I won''t go, and you won''t let me see ah Chen..." Jane Mo said with a deliberate hum. J tilted his mouth, put down the computer and turned it on. He didn''t say anything. His fingers flew on the keyboard for a while and connected to the monitoring of the reception again Jane Mo''s mouth crossed a cunning smile, went to J''s side and began to see Temporary separation, to be able to see him in this way, is also a kind of happiness for her. Jian Mo watched Gu Beichen''s every move from the monitoring. She had never followed his figure so seriously for so long So that he talked with people calmly and calmly, sipped wine gracefully, frowned occasionally, and a shallow smile spilled from the corners of his mouth, all of which took away her soul. A waiter held a tray with a glass of white to red wine on it. "Mr. Gu, the wine made by Miss Mellon for you..." the waiter said respectfully, "Miss Mellon invites you to drink." Gu Beichen looked in the direction indicated by the waiter and saw Mei Lang raise his glass and sign to him with a charming smile. Cook is the host, and Mellon is cook''s beloved daughter, who is favored by her. It''s an honor for many people at such a reception. Gu Beichen picked up the bartender, calmly raised his glass to Mei Lang and motioned... Then he put the bartender on his lips and lifted it slightly. "There''s something wrong with the wine..." the cold voice came with a strange touch. Jian Mo immediately looked back and saw Shi Shaoqin standing behind her, "what do you mean?" "Mei Lang is a famous wolf girl in the social circle," Shi Shaoqin''s eyes gradually deepened. "She likes drug flirting best." As he spoke, he looked at Jane Mo and smiled, "you said, Chen is in bed, can you satisfy her?" Chapter 734 Jane Mo frowned slightly and looked at Shi Shaoqin. She felt that this man was annoying more and more. It seems that other people''s happiness is impossible As long as you are comfortable, he will feel uncomfortable. He can only be comfortable if you have to kill all your happiness. After hearing Shi Shaoqin''s words, J looked curious, "is Mei Lang going to eat Gu Beichen?" He questioned, then laughed, "Oh, it''s a pity that there''s no camera in the room, or I can broadcast it live." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and looked at J unbearably. Sure enough, the abnormal idea of being with someone is the same "I believe him!" Jane Mo said very calmly, even without too much emotion. Shi Shaoqin sat down next to Jian Mo and motioned J to link the big screen, "I believe him, too." "..." Jian Mo frowned and looked at Shi Shaoqin. She always thought he had something else to say. "You must not understand how many dirty things there are in the circle of foreign celebrities," Shi Shaoqin smiled and looked at the big screen. "Mei Lang''s mother is not valued, but she can be loved by cook herself... Why?" Jane Mo didn''t answer. "Because she has means to men..." Shi Shaoqin didn''t intend to say it clearly. He knew that Jian Mo would understand. Jane Mo Chuo lowered her lip, then clenched her teeth and said, "what if ah Chen is unclean? He......" she looked at Shi Shaoqin and sneered, "... It''s always my ah Chen!" Shi Shaoqin glanced at Jian Mo, "do women become blind because of love?" He said softly, "shouldn''t both men and women be pure to each other''s body and mind in your world?" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and smiled hypocritically, "but don''t forget... Women are easy to be cheap!" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, as if he was disgusted with Jian Mo''s words. "When a woman is cheap, she will find a lot of reasons to make her comfortable..." Jane Mo said seriously. "Naturally, I love him, and I will lower my double quotient, and then be cheap, isn''t it?" While talking, Gu Beichen had come together with Mei lang. they said something, and their posture showed unspeakable warmth. "..." Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo as if her attitude and reaction were different from what he expected. Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin quietly. "In fact, you may find someone to love... Only with deep love can you understand your trust and support for a person." Jian Mo stood up and looked down at Shi Shaoqin. "I don''t know what you want ah Chen to do, but I''m afraid there will be a lot of things I''ve never met." Shi Shaoqin''s mouth lightly overflowed with a faint smile, and his eyes became deep and bottomless. "But no matter what happens, I will only love him more!" Jane Mo said calmly and turned to go outside. "Don''t you see?" J''s voice came from behind. Jane Mo kept walking, "don''t watch... Anyway, you can''t broadcast it live when they go to bed or something." As soon as J heard it, the corners of his mouth twitched and whispered, "it''s like if I can broadcast it, you''ll see it, hum!" Jane Mo walked to the door, with a helpless but funny smile in her mouth. She looked back at the depressed J and left the video room. Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo with a smile. She didn''t expect him to be outside "When did you come here?" Jane Mo came forward, smiled with Carney, and pushed Shi juechi to the elevator. "Shaoqin came when he went in," said Shi juechi with a smile. "Are you angry with him again?" "I''m not in the mood." Jane Mo sniffed coldly, "he''s so uncomfortable... Unfortunately, I only love ah Chen. How can I be angry?" Shi Jue Chi''s mouth corner was smiling, and there was a touch of light sadness across his eyes "Jue Chi..." "Huh?" Jian Mo pushed Shi juechi into the elevator. "In fact, even if there is a problem with that glass of wine, even if ah Chen is not fortified... He won''t do anything with Mei lang. I believe in his self-control." Shi juechi looked back slightly and then took back his sight. Shaoqin''s attitude towards getting along with Mo Mo these days is a little strange If it''s to promise him, or the agreement with Gu Beichen, it''s always strange. In fact, Shaoqin can just tell Mo Mo that the drugs in the celebrity circle won''t give you the chance to have self-control Shaoqin didn''t say it, and naturally he wouldn''t say it. Perhaps, sometimes, self deception is the best precipitation for a long time What''s more, as long as Momo and Beichen love each other, there are some uncontrollable accidents, so what?! ¡­¡­ Mei Lang''s arms are long on the 44th floor of the hotel She looked at his slightly drunk appearance, and the smile from the corners of her mouth filled the air. This man is really charming... With the mystery of Oriental people and the unique charm of men. The effect has just started, and she can''t help it. "Get the car from McGrady and drive it here..." Mei Lang said with an eyebrow. "Gu, you''re deliberately attracting my attention." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly. His deep vision didn''t need to do anything. He had hooked the people in front of him into his world. "Caused by the car?" Gu Beichen said, "I thought it was me!" Mei Lang smiled as soon as she heard this... Her hand moved slightly, and she grabbed Gu Beichen''s tie and played with it. "Tonight... We''ll have a good time!" Mei Lang twisted his body and stuck it on Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed gradually. Under the dim light, the disgust at the bottom of his eyes was hidden. Suddenly Gu Beichen grabbed Mei Lang''s wrist and turned it over. He became the one who suppressed Mei Lang when he was pressed on the wall. Melanie is still smiling. She likes the subtle flirting way of oriental men That feeling is itchy in my heart. "Maiyadi likes that car very much," Gu Beichen''s low voice was hoarse. "He just begged me to have dinner with her... Do you want me to be your guest?" The words fell, Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a smile of evil charm, and slowly let go of Mei Lang. Without the addiction just now, some are just indifference and alienation under calm Mellon was a little surprised. "Did you drink that glass of wine?!" "Yes..." Gu Beichen copied his pocket with both hands and smiled coldly at his thin lips. "It''s just that you didn''t adjust the cup I drank." "..." merlan stood up. "How could it be?!" Gu Beichen didn''t explain. He just turned around and looked at the environment in the house After a brief surprise, meilang asked coldly, "you deliberately pretended to be drugged. What''s the purpose?" "Mayadi''s favorite car," Gu Beichen turned to Mei Lang, "what do you think I want from you?" "Luminous diamond?" Mei Lang hurriedly covered his mouth, looked at Gu Beichen''s smile and said coldly, "I won''t give it to you..." She has never been fooled by a man. How can she fool around if she tells it?! Want luminous diamonds, impossible! Gu Beichen was not in a hurry, but calmly turned off the light "What are you doing?" Melanie frowned. Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone, called out the special software, and then swept around the house... Suddenly, Mei Lang''s face became appalled! Chapter 735 "How could this happen?" Mei Lang exclaimed, looking at the faint red dot on the screen and staring at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen indifferently received his mobile phone and turned on the light, "go!" Before Mellon could react, someone took her by the wrist, opened the door and left the guest room. After being pulled into the elevator, Mei Lang suddenly reacted: "why?" Gu Beichen loosened her, just glanced at her indifferently and pressed the button to the parking lot without saying anything. Meilang is a person who has been in the circle for a long time. Although she doesn''t know what happened, she also knows that she has been trapped by others. The sound of "Ding" crossed and the elevator reached the underground garage. Gu Beichen glanced around and saw his car coming. He walked over without even saying hello to Mellon Mei Lang was dissatisfied with Gu Beichen''s coldness and arrogance, but he still raised his skirt and followed him. Luxury cars represent the only such high-end vehicles. Its real value is the only one in the world. Gu Beichen started the car and drove out of the hotel. There are many media waiting outside. As soon as Gu Beichen''s car came out, someone had seen it and began to take pictures of it. "That seems to be Meron?" Someone screamed at the extremely fast speed. "I didn''t see my face, but the dress seemed almost the same!" Someone answered. "Just heard the news inside, Mei Lang seems to pay special attention to Chen Shao. It seems to be true?!" "I heard that Chen Shao loves his wife very much?" "Love and passion can often be separated..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Media people looked at the car that had disappeared and talked about it one after another Fragrant car beauty plus a tall, rich and handsome has always been the biggest talk in all pages. However, at the moment, no one knows who he fell into... What role he plays. ¡­¡­ Because of the time difference, the Mo palace is already late at night Jane Mo didn''t know where the time was used here, but she didn''t feel sleepy when she looked at the clock crossing 11 p.m. The sea breeze was blowing gently, with salty moisture. Jian Mo sat under the sunshade, and the light was surrounded by small flies. From time to time, she couldn''t resist the temptation of light and was burned to her tiny body. "Can''t sleep?" Jian Mo looked back and saw Shi Shaoqin. He looked back indifferently and looked at the sea shrouded by the moonlight ahead. "Don''t you sleep?" "Chen left the hotel with Mei Lang..." Shi Shaoqin sat down beside Jian mo. "Yes." Jane Mo answered faintly, without much emotion. Mo Palace should be in the tropics. When it is winter in Los Angeles, the climate here is still very pleasant At night, the sea breeze blows and thinks about Gu Beichen facing the sea. Jian Mo feels that such a time is not difficult. "Go to sleep..." Shi Shaoqin said softly, "maybe there''s something to worry about tomorrow!" Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin and looked at him If you don''t think deeply, if you don''t know Shi Shaoqin''s metamorphosis... Jian Mo thinks that this person is really beautiful at the moment. The soft light hit his handsome face, just like a still picture, which was suffocating. And how charming such beauty is, how heavy darkness you can feel in the next moment. "What do you want to say?" Jane Mo asked indifferently. Shi Shaoqin smiled at the corners of his pretty mouth and looked at the sea without speaking. "I haven''t been out here for many years... But I control the economy of many places and the life and death of many people. Do you know why?" "I''m not interested in your abnormal behavior." Jane Mo hissed coldly and converged her sight. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo and his eyes were deep. "In the past, it was very beautiful... Sunshine, flowers, laughter... Very beautiful!" Jane Mo frowned. "Mo''er, no one is born to like darkness." Shi Shaoqin suddenly became cold. "I like darkness, just because the sun is not bright!" Jane Mo "Teng" stood up, some too strong, and the beach chair was lifted. "Don''t tell me a story. I don''t want to hear it." Jane Mo put down her words lightly, "I''m going back to bed. Good night!" Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly. Jian Mo had gone far. He gently opened his lips and slowly spilled two words, "good night!" Night, not quiet under the waves. Jian Mo slept restlessly, as if dragged by a nightmare, but every time she opened her eyes, she couldn''t remember what she had just dreamed Wake up again, the sun has been naughty through the curtains and sprinkled into the bedroom. After getting up and washing, Jane Mo went to the restaurant Shi Shaoqin is very kind to her. She likes her meals every day, not to mention the nutritional proportion of pregnant women. But, because of Shi Shaoqin''s words last night, Jian Mo''s steps to the restaurant were a little slow Even, when approaching the restaurant, the steps became hesitant. The air is filled with strange and treacherous breath, which makes people unable to breathe. Jian Mo swallowed involuntarily. When people stood at the door of the restaurant, they could see... Shi Shaoqin was answering the phone. When she lifted her lips, Jane Mo looked around the circle and found no stone Jue Chi. These days, they all eat together... Has he finished today?! When the bang rang again, Jian Mo was surprised and subconsciously looked at Shi Shaoqin... There was still a broken mobile phone lying on the ground. The people in the restaurant stood in silence one by one. Even the naked eye could see them trembling. "What''s the matter?" Jane Mo endured and asked after all. Shi Shaoqin looked sideways at Jian Mo, who was still standing at the door of the restaurant. His narrow eyes narrowed gradually At the moment when he suddenly opened it, two terrible sharp lights came out. Jian Mo hasn''t responded yet. Shi Shaoqin has arrived. His slender fingers grabbed Jian Mo''s neck and made a sudden effort "Well..." Jane Mo felt that she couldn''t breathe for a moment. She subconsciously pushed Shi Shaoqin, but she couldn''t use any strength. Shi Shaoqin''s face became extremely heavy and fierce. He would not show his coldness even if he was angry in the past. "Let go... Let go... Oh... Let go..." Jian Mo said hard. She began to wave her hand while protecting her stomach from Shi Shaoqin. With less and less air inhaled, Jian Mo''s face began to become as white as paper... And then became red and blue. Breathing, more and more short, heavy, let Jane Mo gradually emerge the color of death "Put..." Jane foamed out a word like a hairspring, and her eyes were filled with tears. She can''t die She has to wait for ah Chen. Xiao Yan hasn''t been born yet... No! Chapter 736 Breathing has become a luxury. With the tightening of Shi Shaoqin''s hand, Jian Mo looked at her line of sight and gradually became gray Suddenly Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s eyes and suddenly tightened his mind. Subconsciously, he released his hand. "Cough... Cough... Cough..." Jane Mo leaned against the wall and protected her neck with one hand. She was choked because she wanted to breathe sharply. Shi Shaoqin stood in place and looked at Jian Mo, who was uncomfortable and bent slightly. There were complex emotions in the bottom of his eyes, constantly transforming He looked at his half empty hand. At that moment, he was shaking uncontrollably. Breathing, also become urgent Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s uncomfortable appearance and felt as if he had been stabbed by someone. The pain was subtle but could not be ignored. "Mo''er..." Shi Shaoqin subconsciously shouted. Jane Mo moved her body slightly. She looked at Shi Shaoqin in horror. Her pale face showed resistance. Looking at Jian Mo''s eyes, Shi Shaoqin''s original complex emotions were instantly replaced by cold. Before, even if Jane Mo treated him coldly, she didn''t even respond to him and scolded him... That was just playing a temper. But at the moment, her eyes, face... Even all cells are full of resistance and fear to him! Shi Shaoqin''s coldness, which had just been restrained, gradually spread all over his body. The air became condensed, which made Jane foam, who was already in shortness of breath, nervous all over the body. She moved towards the elevator little by little, coughing and looking at Shi Shaoqin nervously "Are you afraid of me?" Shi Shaoqin''s words spilled like an ice cone, and his narrow eyes narrowed and opened in an instant. Jane Mo has just returned from the edge of death. At the moment, her body is full of fear of death. She didn''t speak, just wanted to escape Shi Shaoqin didn''t move. Looking at Jian Mo''s action, he became more and more familiar with it. Jian Mo''s feet were suddenly as heavy as lead. She couldn''t lift them at all... She leaned against the wall and looked at Shi Shaoqin like this. They looked at each other, and their eyes were so cold that there was no temperature at all. A frightened man is ready to collapse The sound of "Ding" and the arrival of the elevator broke the deadlock. "What happened?" Shi juechi frowned slightly. He controlled the wheelchair and came forward. After looking at Shi Shaoqin, he went to Jian mo. Before, because of the angle of sight, Shi juechi saw the clear pinch mark on Jian Mo''s neck He suddenly looked at Shi Shaoqin, "Shaoqin, what did you do to Mo Mo?" The words of self reproach were filled with worry. Because Shi Jue Chi was worried, he subconsciously wanted to stand up However, due to excessive force, he only felt the position of his heart and suddenly pulled it off. In this way, Shi juechi was instantly wet behind the pain... The man couldn''t hold his strength and fell back into the wheelchair. "Jue Chi?" Jane Mo exclaimed. Shi juechi closed his eyes, took a deep breath, looked up with a smile, shook his head at Jian Mo, "you..." The words just came out. Shi Jue Chi looked at the Le mark on Jane Mo''s neck and frowned suddenly. Jane Mo Chuo lips, looked at the eyes, still stood in place, looked coldly at their Shi Shaoqin, endured, shook his head, "I''m fine. I''m a little uncomfortable, I''ll go..." "I''ll accompany you!" Shi Jue Chi spoke softly without waiting for Jian Mo to finish. Jian Mo endured her physical discomfort, nodded, ignored Shi Shaoqin''s and left with Shi juechi. In the secluded corridor, only Shi Shaoqin stood alone... For a long time. After a long time, the servants in the restaurant felt numb in their legs and feet, and he didn''t move. "What''s going on?" Shi juechi asked hurriedly when Xiao Siyue came in. Xiao Siyue looked at Jian Mo standing by the window and was embarrassed. Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo, and at the right time, she just turned around... They looked at each other with a faint breath. "It has something to do with ah Chen, right?" Jane Mo asked softly. As I spoke, the muscles on the other side of my neck hurt a little Xiao Siyue nodded, took out his mobile phone from his pocket, opened something and handed it to Jian mo. Jian Mo looked at Xiao Siyue, then took the mobile phone and looked down [the president of emperor group took a beautiful car with a mysterious beauty in the suburbs overnight. Cook''s daughter, the richest man, was arrested in the middle of a charity reception for possession of drugs!] Jian Mo looked at the headlines of the headlines, slightly frowned and looked at Xiao Siyue "Although I don''t know what the real situation should be," Xiao Siyue sighed deeply, "but with my understanding of Qin Shao... I''m afraid it deviates a lot from his calculation." Jane Mo stares at her eyes When J linked her to the video, Shi Shaoqin still meant that ah Chen and Mei Lang would go to bed But now I''m going to the suburbs with other beauties? And Mellon was arrested That''s amazing! "Things won''t be as simple as they seem." Shi Jue Chi frowned slightly, looked at Jian Mo and sighed, "Mo Mo, you still have less contact with Shaoqin these two days." "If I don''t touch him, he will automatically appear in front of me..." Jian Mo is a little weak. He looks at his mobile phone again. There is only a back of Gu Beichen on it. However, even this figure, for her, was reluctant to put it down. ¡­¡­ The news in Melbourne has been rampant. Last night''s charity reception was covered by the news of meilang''s arrest. Gu Beichen stood in front of the hotel window with his hands in his pockets. Behind him, there was a report on the TV news. The external media have been in a mess, whether it''s audio media, paper media or online media Last night, Gu Beichen drove away with Mei Lang, which many people saw There are a little clearer photos, and you can see the rose gold dress on melanin. However, just as everyone ravaged the news that Gu Beichen spent the night with Mei Lang, the news of Mei Lang''s arrest last night was released. "Your skill is really excellent..." Xiao Nan looked through the newspaper, looked at the deliberately enlarged picture on it, and muttered, "this picture is good, so I have some material?!" Gu Beichen''s eyes narrowed slightly and said coldly, "Shi Shaoqin dug a lot of traps for me... Every step will fall." Before going to the reception, he had calculated all the possible things He completely abandoned his thoughts and stood in the perspective of Shi Shaoqin A night of scheming, at the same time, it is doomed that every step can''t go wrong. Xiao Nan put down the newspaper and got up. She walked towards Gu Beichen with her arms around her chest. "How do you know that Shi Shaoqin will monitor you?" "How can Mo''er let go of things that make Mo''er uncomfortable?" Gu Beichen said softly, drooping his eyes, and a touch of ridicule appeared at the corners of his mouth. Xiao Nan leaned against the window. "In fact, I''m more curious. How can Chen Shao be sure that Mei Lang will think about you?" Chapter 737 "Mr. Xiao''s car!" Gu Beichen raised his eyes and his sight fell in front. Even if people don''t care about what they don''t get, they also have a knot in their heart. Mr. Xiao grabbed Mei Lang''s eyes in his car. The moment he got off the bus, she had raised her curiosity Mo''er said that he was a demon who attracted bees and butterflies! If you want women to favor him, it''s the woman surrounded by Meron''s aura... As long as you give her a sense of difference, you don''t even need to do much. The more you do, the less curious she will be Only with a sense of alienation will I be interested in her. When he saw the car Mr. Xiao prepared for him, he probably understood what Mr. Xiao meant. Now that I understand, it''s not difficult to solve some subsequent problems. Whether it''s the ultraviolet monitoring in the room, or the police who took Mei Lang away... And he arranged Xiao Nan to dress up as Mei Lang and leave with him. The media is the best at making rumors. At such a fast speed, coupled with the reflective design of the car glass... Even with the most professional camera in the hands of the media, it is impossible to capture Xiao Nan''s face. With makeup and clothes, people''s instinctive consciousness will think that he took Mellon. Shi Shaoqin''s purpose is not that he can''t guess. The worst result is probably to let Mei Lang die And he, as the last contact, wants to escape under the evidence he left behind, which is very difficult! This is only the first step. The next step may lead to many problems from meilang''s death... Finally, he fell into the dark in the first inning. Xiao Nan didn''t speak, but looked at Gu Beichen with slightly drooping eyes. The smile on the corners of her mouth didn''t melt. Such Gu Beichen is something she has never seen When brother Xiao brought people back to England, she happened to have something to do. When she comes back, Chen Shao is ready to go back to Los Angeles At that time, Xiao Jing followed him. "Next," Xiao Nan said slowly, "are you going to ask cook to deliver the luminous diamond to you personally?!" Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked out of the window again. "It seems... Time can be shortened again!" "Mr. Xiao''s gift is really generous!" Xiao Nan picked her eyebrow and said, "I''ve heard from brother Xiao. Although the news of XK selling is all based on mood, Mr. Xiao is really surprised this time." Gu Beichen is not stupid. On the contrary, he is very smart! He has felt something since he was on the golf course. "I heard..." Xiao Nan''s smile deepened. "In the past, long Xiaoche, the person in charge of Longdao, got the help of Mr. Xie, the founder of XK. Finally, under Mr. Xie''s step-by-step layout, he took over XK?!" Gu Beichen glanced at Xiao Nan, calmly took back his sight, turned around, took a glass of water for himself, and said, "I won''t be the second longxiaoche." Everyone''s life is unique and cannot be copied. Even if copying, it is not the same life after all Gu Beichen put down his glass of water and picked up the phone. "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing''s voice came from the other end of the phone, "it has been arranged." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, "hard work..." Xiao Jing''s heart jerked, "I also want to end this situation as soon as possible." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered again and hung up. Xiao Jing casually threw his mobile phone onto the table and his eyes fell on the computer screen. Looking at the email sent, his eyes gradually became deeper and deeper. In the dark world, only when you feel yourself in the dark can others not see you... You can wait for the opportunity to move. After holding the mouse and clicking to clean up the mail, Xiao Jing lay back in his seat indifferently The sound of "Di" came, and Xiao Jing pressed the internal telephone. "Xiao tezhu, the financial statements of the third quarter have been sorted out." "Take it up!" Xiao Jing said in a slightly tired voice. Since Gu Beichen left Los Angeles, Xiao Jing hasn''t had a good sleep After Chen Shao took "Mei Lang" away last night, he had to spend a night sorting out all cook''s information to Chen Shao. Otherwise, the news broke out in Melbourne today, and Shi Shaoqin will use the fastest way to intercept Chen Shao''s plan. "Dong Dong!" "Come in!" While Xiao Jing spoke faintly, the fatigue on his face had gradually dispersed. The staff of the finance department came in and handed the statement to Xiao Jing. "In addition, the engineering department applied for 200 million under the project in the fourth quarter..." said, and handed the application to Xiao Jing. Xiao Jing first looked at the application, frowned slightly, and then closed. He raised his eyes, "let the director of the engineering department come up to me..." his eyes were deep. "In addition, if the list made by your finance department is like this, I think we can consider changing blood!" As soon as the financial personnel heard this, they were awed and cowardly accepted the application for approval. "Leave the report first. Go down first." Xiao Jing''s indifferent convergent eyes. The financial staff answered and left with the application Out of the office, she looked back at the sound under the shutter and hissed coldly, "the tiger is not at home, the monkey is called the overlord! Hum..." The financial staff was discontented and turned to leave, but when they were moving, they immediately felt embarrassed to see Susan. Susan came forward with a smile. "Do you know?" "Huh?" The financial personnel made a subconscious sound. "Why did Chen Shao leave and let Xiao tezhu handle everything?" Asked Susan. The corner of the financial staff''s mouth twitched and became more and more embarrassed. Susan smiled strangely. "Even I can''t question the ability of Xiao tezhu..." She leaned forward and whispered, "in this world, there are people like you who can never reach... Nor touch." Susan got up and her face turned cold. She looked at the changeable face of the financial staff and said indifferently, "I won''t say today... A job is not easy." Paused, "but this is your only chance." Susan''s voice became cold. "Emperors don''t need people who don''t have the ability to just play with their mouths." The financial officer glanced at the corners of his mouth and said nothing. He just looked at Susan and finally walked to the elevator Susan pushed open the door of Xiao Jing''s office in some anger. "I heard you''re planning to usurp the throne?" Xiao Jing flipped the financial statements and said in a dull voice, "it''s normal to seek his government in his position." Susan sighed heavily and sat down opposite Xiao Jing. "She looks in bad spirits..." "Try not to sleep all night and your brain is still running at high speed?" Xiao Jing looked up and fanned his eyes with some fatigue. "Chen Shao, what''s going on over there?" Susan asked with concern. Xiao Jing simply put down the report and lay lazily on the table, "the beginning should be good..." With the help of XK, this is a good start. Gu Beichen looked at some things in the data. Finally, his thin lips shallow hooked a evil smile. At the right time, the mobile phone rings. Gu Beichen picked it up and saw that it was the local number of Melbourne His eyes were deep, then he picked them up and put them in his ear. "Mr. Gu is really good." On the phone, came the forbearing anger, "what do you want?" Gu Beichen''s sight gradually became deep and bottomless, "exchange luminous diamonds!" Chapter 738 Cook sniffed coldly, "Mr. Gu really tried his best to get a luminous diamond." "OK." Gu Beichen folded his legs leisurely and leaned slowly on the sofa. Cook''s voice was colder. "How did Mr. Gu know that was on me?" "It doesn''t matter how I know." Gu Beichen''s voice was always faint, so people couldn''t hear too many emotions. "You just need to know that I have to get that thing." Cook was silent, and his original anger gradually became dignified. "Mr. Gu wants this thing, wants to come... And knows its origin." "Yes." Gu Beichen didn''t hide it. "Isn''t Mr. Gu afraid of holding a bomb in his hand?" Cook was curious. "Even if it was a bomb, didn''t Mr. cook hold it for years?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer the question. Cook was silent again. Luminous diamond is the only one in the world. No one can estimate its value. People''s desire for money is often greedy. Cook is very rich, but he doesn''t have the only thing. Naturally, he wants Even if, knowing clearly, this thing may bring a lot of follow-up problems. "It''s not on me," Cook said. "Melanie put it up. Even I don''t know where it is?" The outside world thinks that Mellon''s ability to get cook''s love is her own ability However, few people know that it is because she has grasped some of Cook''s handle?! Gu Beichen smiled with an unfathomable smile. "Then there''s nothing to talk about..." he said, coldly hanging up the phone. Cook listened to the hanging sound inside and immediately frowned and scolded, "shit!" Gu Beichen calmly picked up the red wine glass and sipped. After a while, the mobile phone rang again. He didn''t even look. He just picked it up and put it in his ear "Good!" Cook gnashed his teeth. "Mr. Gu, I''ve written down this feeling..." his voice was filled with anger. "Today, I''ll send things." "Within an hour after seeing something," Gu Beichen said calmly. "I can guarantee that meilang can''t say anything at the police." "No!" Cook gritted his teeth and said, "there is only one kind of person who won''t talk nonsense." "Are you sure?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were cold and disgusted. It''s said that tiger poison doesn''t eat son... But obviously, interests have cut off the relationship between father and daughter. "Yes!" Cook seemed determined, "in half an hour, you''ll see what you want..." This time, cook hung up without waiting for Gu Beichen to speak. And he did what he said. In half an hour, Gu Beichen''s guest room door was knocked Looking at the luminous diamond in the box, Gu Beichen''s vision gradually became deep and bottomless. "Insert the latest report," timely, the news came from TV, "get the latest news, Mellon suddenly convulsed all over during the interrogation, resulting in convulsion..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked back on the TV Above, there are several photos, which seem to be screenshots of monitoring. "The police rushed to the hospital immediately, but on the way, they stopped breathing... After rescue, they died!" There was an unspeakable sigh in the director''s voice, "at present, whether the cause of meilang''s death was caused by the drug, the police and forensic medicine are further investigating..." At the time of the day, the moment before, Mei Lang appeared in front of the public. At the latter moment, the beauty has disappeared. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed gradually, and suddenly opened when they were about to become a line. Take your cell phone and dial the number At the moment of connection, Gu Beichen asked coldly, "what did you do?" It''s a question, but it''s already a yes! Xiao Nan smiled at the corners of her mouth. With that smile, she was completely a snake and scorpion beauty. "I said, there is dirty water, you can pour it on me as much as you like!" "Xiao Nan!" Gu Beichen shouted heavily. Xiao Nan''s face didn''t matter. "Chen Shao should send things away as soon as possible... Save more trouble." After a pause, she continued, "I''ll wait for you in San Francisco!" Without giving Gu Beichen a chance to speak, Xiao Nan hung up She looked at the ticket in her hand, and there was a faint light in her eyes... But it was too fast for people to notice. From knowing that Chen Shao planned to force cook to take out the luminous diamond, she knew... The information Mr. Xiao gave him must be cook''s death. Mellon has an unpopular mother, but she can be loved... I''m afraid it''s also because of Cook''s weakness. She doesn''t know the things between the rich and powerful, but she knows the things in the dark world best. Cook must think that meilang told chenshao If you want to get the luminous diamond, meilang, you must die! Brother Xiao asked her to come to ensure that Chen Shao''s hands... Are clean to the greatest extent. Well, she''s the only one who does Mellon''s business! ¡­¡­ Jane Mo is wearing a long white skirt with white feet and wrists. Her hair is scattered and she is walking barefoot on the beach. Being exposed to the sun, the warm sand conveys warmth from the center of your feet. She touched her neck. Even after a day, she still had some pain "Jian Mo, Jian mo..." Nearby, there were shouts. Jane Mo ignored it and continued to enjoy the sunshine as if she hadn''t heard it. J frowned and stopped shouting. After taking a big step, he chased Jane Mo, "Hey, I called you. Didn''t you hear me?" "I didn''t hear you!" Jane looked innocently at J. J frowned more tightly, "I shouted loudly..." "But I automatically abandoned the world and fell into my own thoughts." Jane Mo lied solemnly. J chuckled, "you people who are not smart enough, just like to fantasize all day..." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and really wanted to put her foot to j, "what are you looking for me for?" "I won''t tell you!" J looks proud and charming, a pair of you beg me, you beg me, I''ll tell you. Unfortunately, after a few days together, Jane Mo found out j''s temper The more you beg him, the less he will tell you. Jane Mo ignored him directly and continued to walk forward, enjoying the sunshine with Xiao Yan. J saw that Jane Mo was not curious at all. He hummed angrily and said stuffy, "Hey, you really don''t want to know?" Jane ignored him. "Gu Beichen sent things back to the ink palace..." "What?" Jane Mo immediately turned around and looked at J. As soon as J saw that she was urgent, he stopped talking, and was elated... That way, it was like a poor beating. Jane Mo snorted coldly and ignored J. she quickened her pace slightly and walked to the ancient castle. J glanced down. "There''s no love at all, hum." He said, chasing Jane Mo, "Hey, you''re pregnant. Can you walk so fast?" Jane Mo is not in the mood to quarrel with J, but urgently wants to know what ah Chen has brought J, come here. Shi Shaoqin must have asked him to come and shout. Jian Mo stood at the door of Shi Shaoqin''s study, subconsciously touched his neck and pursed his lips. Suddenly, he hesitated Chapter 739 "What''s the matter?" J was curious to see Jian Mo standing motionless at the door of his study. Jane Mo glanced at him, glanced at the corner of her lower lip and knocked on the door. "Enter!" The low voice floated with light. Jane Mo took a deep breath and opened the door In the dark space, there is only a thin light. It is clear that the sun outside is very good, but here, it is cold. After the "vicious" incident in the restaurant yesterday, Jane Mo didn''t go to the restaurant for dinner. Shi Jue Chi phene asked the servant to send it to her room. She didn''t go to the restaurant this morning However, according to the servant, Shi Shaoqin didn''t go to the restaurant either. "J said..." Jian Mo broke the silence and said, "ah Chen brought something back." Shi Shaoqin turned slowly and looked at Jian Mo standing at the door. The white skirt is very suitable for her. Her hair, which has passed her shoulders, is scattered at will, showing the purity of laziness. His eyes moved slightly. J had intended to stay, but he was so frightened that he ran away like a running rabbit. Jane Mo frowned slightly and was beating a drum in her heart... It was a tense emotion under the force. Jane Mo bit her teeth. "J said, ah Chen has something for me?" "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, "did he say that to you?" The end of his words rose slightly, with a touch of ridicule, "didn''t he say that Chen sent something back to the ink palace?" Jane Mo''s lips "He went to work for me..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was more and more slow, and his steps walked slowly to Jian Mo, "is it abnormal to send things back?" As Shi Shaoqin approached, Jian Mo''s breathing began to become rapid. She wanted to turn around and escape, but her feet couldn''t move at once... As if she had been hit by Shi Shaoqin''s sight. "Isn''t it..." Shi Shaoqin''s low voice came. It sounded gentle, but it gave people invisible pressure, "... If it''s not Chen''s thing, will you continue to hide from me?" "I..." Jane Mo just opened her mouth and stopped. She meant to say something, but when it came to her mouth, she felt it was inappropriate She is avoiding him, but often the truth is hard to accept. "If ah Chen doesn''t have anything for me," Jane murmured at the corner of her lips, "then I''ll have dessert." Jane Mo said, and then she wanted to turn around But at the moment of turning around, Shi Shaoqin pulled his wrist. "Let go of me -" Jian Mo screamed subconsciously because she was nervous, and shook her hand hard. Her actions, her words, no doubt... Angered Shi Shaoqin. In the sight of Shang Shi Shaoqin, Jian Mo breathed quickly and heavily. She was afraid, but she had to face it. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s appearance. His narrow eyes were filled with rapidly changing thoughts... Quickly let Jian Mo change before he noticed any trace. Jane Mo was biting her teeth. She didn''t dare to say anything. She was afraid to stimulate Shi Shaoqin. Looking at Jian Mo holding back his fear, Shi Shaoqin suddenly felt as if he had blocked a stone That feeling is really bad! As soon as I shook off Jian Mo''s wrist, I saw that she stepped back because of her unstable center of gravity Shi Shaoqin subconsciously wanted to catch her, but she didn''t move because of her resistance and sensitivity to his touch. Jane Mo quickly grabbed the door frame and stabilized the momentum of her retreat. She looked at Shi Shaoqin and took a deep breath. "I didn''t give it to me. I''ll go." Her tone, not too much emotion, showed a touch of helplessness "Yes!" Just as Jian Mo turned around, Shi Shaoqin''s gentle voice came. Jian Mo stopped and looked at Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin stared at Jian Mo''s eyes, which were still afraid, but endured because of Gu Beichen, and his heart couldn''t tell. Turning around, he picked up a piece of paper and a package of things from his desk and came back. "Chen let me give it to you." Shi Shaoqin''s voice could not hear his emotions. Jane Mo took it. It was a hand-painted QR code and a bag of sunflower seeds. "When did these things come back?" Asked Jane mo. "Last night!" Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin, his eyes filled with cunning, "have you scanned this QR code?" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and didn''t speak. "Can''t you untie it?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and asked again. Shi Shaoqin''s eyebrows frowned a little tighter, but looking at Jian Mo, different from the fear just now, he looked a little more cheerful, and his sight became deep "There are things you can''t do..." Jane Mo couldn''t help but say with little joy. She turned around and left with the QR code that Shi Shaoqin couldn''t solve and sunflower seeds. Shi Shaoqin didn''t stop Jian Mo, but looked at her back and looked deeper. Morson stood at the other end of the corridor with something in his hand He looked at Jane Mo''s back indifferently. Even if it was just a back, he could feel her happiness. Yesterday, Gu Beichen took the luminous diamond and brought it back to him. He guessed that there would be something in it for Jian mo. However, he didn''t expect... Qin Shao would give Jane Mo! ¡­¡­ Jane Mo didn''t go back to her room, but went to Shi juechi She has now returned to the liberation without mobile phones. It is impossible to scan the code. "Is this a double deck?" Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo decomposing and asked with a frown. "Yes." Jian Mo said while painting, "ah Chen and I both learn design. Painting these things is not difficult for us... Sometimes it''s just a part of flirting." Then, with a sunny smile on Jian Mo''s face, she glanced at Shi Jue Chi and continued to draw Such a smile, without any impurities, shows the beauty of indulging in love. Shi Jue Chi couldn''t help laughing at the corners of his mouth. He picked up the package of sunflower seeds and looked through it, "what about this?" He raised his eyebrows and joked and deliberately asked, "I''m afraid you''re bored. Give me time to polish melon seeds?" With a puff, Jane Mo laughed. Shi juechi looked blankly, waiting for Jian Mo to explain Jian Mo took the sunflower seeds in Shi juechi''s hand and said, "plant a bag of sunflower seeds and harvest the sunshine!" She said with a smile. Happiness filled her eyes, "because sunflowers are also called sunflowers!" With happiness and sweetness, Jian Mo continued to decompose the QR code. Shi juechi looked at her quietly. Gradually, deep in her sight, she was filled with a touch of sadness and strong envy "Done..." after Jane Mo decomposed, she looked at Shi Jue Chi and spread her hand. Shi juechi took the mobile phone and put it in her hand Jian Mo opened the scanning software and listened to Shi Jue Chi ask, "what do you think Beichen will tell you?" Jane Mo matched the scanning frame with the QR code and said, "let me be at ease..." At the right time, the "drop" came, and the information appeared. "I''m well and love you!" The second QR code message is: towards the sun, savage growth Chapter 740 Shi juechi looked at the information of two QR codes, and her eyes gradually deepened... On her warm face, there was a vague complexity. The love between Gu Beichen and Mo Mo no longer needs words to understand what the other party wants to say Their love, between them... No one can participate in it anymore! What kind of love can do this?! Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo and gradually became a little confused Jane Mo didn''t find it. She just looked at the QR code and the sunflower seeds in her hand. The smile at the corners of her mouth was as bright as the sun. Ah Chen, Xiao Yan and I are also very good... We will wait for your return with peace of mind. Jian Mo said silently, looking at the QR code information on the mobile phone screen with some reluctance... She gave her lips and handed her mobile phone back to Shi juechi. "Thank you!" Shi juechi shook his head and took over the mobile phone. "In fact, you can ask Shaoqin for a mobile phone..." "He certainly won''t give it!" Jane skimmed her mouth. Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo''s nimble appearance and smiled, "will give..." he saw Jian Mo confused and explained, "because if you want to contact the outside world here, you must go through the receiving transmitter." Shi Jue Chi didn''t go on, and Jian Mo understood. In other words, if she wants to contact ah Chen, she must go through Shi Shaoqin. "It doesn''t make sense, does it?" Jane Mo shrugged. "Ah Chen can''t send things back all the time... Three things, two more. In fact, there''s only one left." "Well?" Shi juechi was puzzled. See Jane Mo get up, stretched a waist and said: "because, the third time... He will personally send it back and take me and Xiao Yan away!" At this point, Jane Mo''s eyes were smiling into crescent moon. Full of expectations and strong will to admit defeat. Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo like this and felt mixed Will Shaoqin really let Gu Beichen go so easily? He doesn''t know Maybe! Maybe... From the beginning, it''s a game. ¡­¡­ Bottles and cans are placed everywhere in the precision instrument laboratory. The colorful liquid in the glass test tube is like a blooming flower, waiting for the cocoon to bloom. Shi Shaoqin was holding something irregular in his hand, about the size of his thumb nail... There was no surprise. Morson stood at a distance, as if he felt something vaguely, and couldn''t help frowning. "Money is the root of all evil..." Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth faintly, and his narrow eyes narrowed slowly. "Is it human greed?" In the empty instrument laboratory, it seems that echoes can still be heard. That feeling is as weird as it should be... Even with a gloomy cold breath. The corner of Shi Shaoqin''s pretty mouth was slightly hooked, and the sight of the things in his hand gradually became cold. Such cold, but in an instant, it filled the whole body "Qin Shao..." Mosen suddenly shouted, obviously, there was a shock in the bottom of his eyes. However, Shi Shaoqin didn''t seem to hear Just listen to the soft "pop" sound, the things in Shi Shaoqin''s hand have fallen into a test cup filled with pink blue reagent. The sound of "Yiyi" can be heard all the time, showing the treachery under corrosion. Morson stared at the test cup overflowing with white fog, and the corners of his mouth twitched uncontrollably. His eyes moved slowly and finally fell on Shi Shaoqin''s face There was no expression on the calm handsome beauty face. However, Mosen followed Shi Shaoqin for a long time... It''s too clear what kind of undercurrent is surging under such calm. The luminous diamond can be taken back by Qin Shao himself, but Gu Beichen is asked to take it And took it back, but it was destroyed in such a dull way! Do you want to destroy the past or Gu Beichen? Morson doesn''t know He just knew that his previous concerns might be superfluous. Qin Shao, never thought of going out of the dark The sunshine of Mo palace is greedy, and such sunshine, except for Jian Mo, seems that no one can really enjoy it. With sunflower seeds in her hand, Jane Mo lay on the lazy sofa and kneaded it gently. Since she got it yesterday, Jian Mo has always put the sunflower seeds beside her... It feels like Gu Beichen has been with her. With a bang, the door was suddenly opened, and Jane Mo turned her eyes secretly, helpless. "J, I''ve said many times that I''m a woman and you''re a man..." Jane Mo sat up. "Can you come into my room and knock at the door?" J was stunned and looked innocent, "forgot..." In Mo palace, he only plays with Qin Shao... But most of them are also Qin Shao looking for him. They don''t need to knock on the door or anything?! Jane Mo stood up. "You''re here just in time. I want to ask you something?" "But I''m here to play games with you..." J glanced. Since last night, J has been infatuated with a fighting game. He''s good at computers, but he hasn''t played games... Especially those that need simple and rough fighting games. After playing several games, I lost to Jane Mo, but there was no way. Because it''s not a string, he''s not good at it! "Tell me first, where is the earth in the Mo palace?" Jane Mo asked, "is it soil?" She came to Mo palace for a few days, and the scope of her activities was basically in the former position of the ancient castle... She hasn''t been there since. "Back mountain..." J shrugged, "but don''t go there." "Why?" Jane Mo doesn''t understand. J said angrily, "the other side is surrounded by Qin Shao''s power grid, because there are beasts in the forest behind the mountain..." "...." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. The hand holding the sunflower seed also rubbed it subconsciously, with some loss on his face. "Let''s go, forget the soil, and play games with me first." J began to act coquettish, "you need soil later and let Qin Shao transport it back from the outside... What kind of soil do you want? It''s not Qin Shao''s word?" J said unintentionally, but Jane Mo was more melancholy. Can see that J can''t wait to play the game. Jane Mo sighed helplessly and decided to send the kid away first. "Did you practice all night last night?" Simple foam like unintentional opening. "I... I just..." J''s face turned red, "no!" Jane Mo glanced at J and didn''t speak, but... The smile around her mouth has explained everything. J''s face is redder. He doesn''t know what he bolted in his mouth. He looks cute to death. Jane Mo still likes J these days. Maybe it''s because she wants to see the way they grow up I don''t want to have a playmate because the milk bag is too smart. Jane Mo accompanied J to the media room, put the sunflower seeds aside, and listened to J''s dissatisfied mutter: "it''s like who wants it... Keep it!" "Can you manage it?" Jane Mo hummed, but looked at sunflower seeds. There is always a voice in her heart, as if urging her to do something Do you really want to find Shi Shaoqin to ask for soil? Will he give it?! Chapter 741 Jane Mo has been with J for an hour, and they both win or lose J depends on talent and Jane Mo depends on familiarity. "Stop playing, I''m going to replenish nutrition and take a walk..." after winning another game, Jane Mo got up while lazily saying. J didn''t bother. He knew that Jane Mo was unambiguous about the baby. "I''ll play again in the afternoon and I''ll beat you." Jane Mo skimmed her lips and didn''t agree or refuse. She has something on her mind and doesn''t concentrate on playing Holding her back, Jane Mo left the media room. Xu is tangled. Something is always changing on her face Often when people encounter problems, their first reaction is to solve the present... But they find that some problems continue to flow. In fact, at such a moment, we need to find the root of the problem and solve it from the root of the problem. Jane Mo sat under the umbrella outside, drinking juice and thinking about something. Because I thought too seriously, I didn''t find anyone close Until a shadow crossed, and then someone sat down in the chair beside him. Jian Mo looked at it dully. When she saw that it was Shi Shaoqin, she was suddenly surprised. "Am I the devil?" Shi Shaoqin was very dissatisfied with Jian Mo''s response and immediately sank his face. Jane Mo bolted something in her mouth, didn''t answer, took back her eyes and continued to eat devil? You are willing to say that you are the devil and don''t ask others whether the devil agrees or not! Jian Mo secretly feigned, even turned his mouth, and completely despised Shi Shaoqin''s words for the devil. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo, and the position of his heart seemed to be tight, but he didn''t care. His eyes fell on the package of sunflower seeds on the hollowed out table. Then he felt his hand and wanted to get it When Shi Shaoqin was about to touch it, Jian Mo instinctively controlled his consciousness and quickly pressed his hand on the sunflower seed. Almost at the same time, Shi Shaoqin pressed his hand In the end, Jian Mo pressed the sunflower seeds and Shi Shaoqin pressed her hand. Jane Mo wants to pull away, but she is afraid of losing sunflower seeds She wanted to pull away with greed, but obviously she thought too much. Shi Shaoqin''s hand pressed on it. She didn''t want to move at all. "This is mine. What do you want?" Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin with a wary face, "let go!" "Loose!" A word, full of unspeakable pressure. Jian Mo did not move, but looked straight at Shang Shi Shaoqin without any fear. Unlike these two days when he faced Shi Shaoqin, he was firm and did not flinch That feeling, Shi Shaoqin''s first intuition was... Because this package of sunflower seeds was sent by Gu Beichen, Jian Mo took it as him! The narrow eyes gradually narrowed and opened suddenly when they became a gap. Jane Mo suddenly felt a chill in her heart. She didn''t react yet, and her men stopped. She looked at the sunflower seeds in Shi Shaoqin''s hand, and a bad feeling came "Don''t..." Jane Mo widened her eyes. Shi Shaoqin has torn open the bag and raised his hand Jian Mo''s eyes fluttered with sunflower seeds... In the sun, it was like a rain. Finally, it was scattered on the beach. Looking at the faint sunflower seeds on the beach, Jian Mo''s eyelashes trembled slightly... Finally, he moved slowly and fell on Shi Shaoqin''s face. There was a faint haze on his handsome face, and her cold eyes were mixed with emotions she couldn''t understand. "Isn''t it..." Jian Mo''s nose suddenly became sour, and the bottom of his eyes was filled with a thin mist, "... Looking at me waiting in a dazed solitude, you will get great happiness?" There was sadness in the trembling voice. However, she endured... Let strength cover it. He didn''t wait for Shi Shaoqin to answer. Even, Jian Mo didn''t need his answer at all She got up and put the sunflower seeds on the table one by one. Shi Shaoqin stood and watched Because of her big belly, Jane Mo bent down to pick up. She worked very hard and adjusted several postures, which were not ideal. However, she stubbornly picked it up one by one. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo and gradually clenched his hands. However, it was loosened before it was clenched... It was an instinct of subconscious resistance. "Foam?" In the distance, Carney pushed the stone Jue Chi out. Seeing such a scene, he immediately frowned. "No one is allowed to help her!" Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "who helped me?" he looked away at Shi Jue Chi. "If you can''t afford the consequences, don''t blame me!" Carney stopped and Shi juechi didn''t say anything. In such a vast area, it was frozen in an instant. Jian Mo didn''t manage Shi Shaoqin, or even see Shi Jue Chi, but found a posture that was relatively easy to pick up and not too uncomfortable She has no time to care about others at the moment, just picking them up one by one. Shi juechi looked at Jian Mo''s movements painfully, and gradually spilled thin anger at Shi Shaoqin And it was at this glance that he was slightly stunned. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s action, his eyebrows gradually frowned, and his face was filled with a complex and rapidly changing look.. Shaoqin, this is Just as Shi Jue Chi thought, Shi Shaoqin stepped forward "Can you stay still?" Jane Mo''s cold voice came from indifference without emotion. Shi Shaoqin subconsciously stopped and his temples moved in time. Jian Mo is still concentrating on picking up sunflower seeds, because it is on the beach. As long as the sand moves, it may not be covered. She carefully picked up the around Shi Shaoqin first, and didn''t let go of every one... Her actions showed her willfulness under persistence. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo in this way. At first, his expression was complex, and in the end, it became cold and fierce. "Pick it up..." Shi Shaoqin said in a cold voice, "can you pick it up all?" Jane Mo didn''t look at him, but said calmly, "I didn''t count, but... I know, there are 360." Such a certain number surprised everyone There is no number, but it is clear that Jian Mo and Gu Beichen had any agreement before? When Jane turned to pick up her cold foot, he suddenly left Shimo. But, because of his action, the few at his feet were covered in the sand. Jian Mo''s hand was still stiff there, and the corners of her mouth took a smoke. Holding back the desolation in her heart, she gently pushed aside the sand and found Shi juechi looked at her like this, and her heart seemed to be constantly pinched. That feeling was very uncomfortable for his current situation. Shi Shaoqin returns to the castle. J is looking for him with the computer in his arms. Seeing that he is full of hostility, he can''t help swallowing it secretly. Shi Shaoqin glanced at J and said coldly, "is there any special significance in the number 360?" Chapter 742 J was stunned and didn''t react, "what 360?" Shi Shaoqin''s face was instantly gloomy, "check!" J continued to be ignorant. Just when Shi Shaoqin''s vision became cold and sharp, as if a knife had crossed him, he reacted, "Oh..." He opened the computer screen and entered the search engine Looking at the result, J didn''t understand the situation. He didn''t think about what to modify at all and said, "it''s'' missing you ''!" After he finished, he continued to ask, "eh? Qin Shao, do you still like to play with love digital password?" The "bang" sound came out just after J''s words. The computer in his hand has become a victim of anger. J was stunned, looked at his poor book, and then looked at the back of Shi Shaoqin who left indifferently... Completely forgot what he came to him for?! "What happened?" J murmured, "why haven''t you seen Qin Shao get angry like this?" Isn''t he always unhappy, just looking for others?! How do you feel... Qin Shao is unhappy with himself this time?! In the ancient castle, there is a dignified. Servants, even those in Mo palace, have long been used to looking for whether Shi Shaoqin is angry from the atmosphere. The sunshine outside became hot as it approached noon. Shining on Jane Mo, I feel like I''m going to scorch her at any time Sweat, drop by drop, fell on the beach, but she ignored it and was still picking it up. Shi juechi looked distressed and shouted anxiously, "don''t pick up foam..." Jian Mo didn''t seem to hear it, but she was still picking it up stubbornly... Just subconsciously without making Xiao Yan uncomfortable. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window facing the sunshade in his study and looked at it quietly With the extension of time, the haze gradually shrouded his handsome face. J was curious about what Shi Shaoqin was looking at and walked over Far away, I saw Jane Mo in a maternity dress kneeling on the ground. I don''t know what to do? "What is she looking for?" J asked. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes narrowed slightly, "sunflower seeds." "Oh..." J answered angrily. "I''ve been with you all the time and fell on the beach... This woman is so stupid!" Shi Shaoqin glanced at J and didn''t speak. J turned his mouth. "In the morning, she asked me where there was soil..." he said, his eyes suddenly brightened, "eh, she doesn''t want to plant those sunflower seeds?" With that, he laughed uncontrollably "My God..." J has laughed to death. "This stupid woman won''t want to try. Can you plant sand?! hahaha, no... I''m so happy..." Shi Shaoqin looked at J coldly and heard him say, "really... In the morning, she said she wanted to find soil, but I haven''t reacted yet." J smiled a little, "I said, there is a mountain behind, but it''s a pity that there is a power grid." He picked his eyebrows and said, "I told her to ask you. What soil is there?!" He laughed again. "How stupid!" Shi Shaoqin looked back coldly, "what did you just ask me for?" "Oh, I almost forgot..." J suddenly remembered and smiled. "I just checked the ticket information... Gu Beichen took a plane to San Francisco an hour later." Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s busy figure, and his eyes narrowed gradually. "He''s really racing against time." ¡­¡­ Melbourne Airport. Gu Beichen sat in the VIP room and turned through the magazine. On the cold, carved face, there was not much emotion... The thin lips closed gently, showing alienation. When the "buzzing" mobile phone vibrated, Gu Beichen calmly closed the magazine and took out the mobile phone. It''s Li Yunze! Pick it up and put it in your ear "Just passed by the emperor and talked with Xiao Jing for a while..." Li Yunze''s voice came slowly, "where are you now?" "Fly to San Francisco later." Gu Beichen spoke calmly. Li Yunze frowned slightly, "Xiao Nan has passed?" "Yes!" "Beichen..." Li Yunze''s voice was worried. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes fell slightly in front, "I''m fine..." his thin lips were slightly tight, "except that he missed her very much!" Such a faint sadness was passed to Li Yunze from a long distance. He frowned subconsciously. He knows Beichen too well What is it like to say such words and miss him so much?! "Yunze," Gu Beichen''s voice was always faint, "nothing is more painful than letting me give up Mo''er." At the moment when the light words spilled over the thin lips, Gu Beichen''s sight showed a faint pain Li Yunze didn''t speak. He just sat in the car and looked at the flow of people and vehicles. "I''m not afraid of anything now," Gu Beichen''s ink pupil became deep and bottomless. "I''m afraid... Mo''er has been around Shi Shaoqin for a long time, and something beyond my control has happened." "Jane Mo is a smart man..." said Li Yunze. "She will wait for you." Gu Beichen was silent and answered slowly. He didn''t explain anything... And when Li Yunze understood what he said, Gu Beichen had boarded the plane to San Francisco. After starting the car, Li Yunze drove to Luoda These two days, an academic exchange meeting was held in Luoyang University. He will communicate in the field of surgery, and he Yining is also in his group. Seeing Beichen like this... Should he seriously consider the relationship between him and he Yining? Do you... Have to wait for wasted time, even impossible barriers, to understand that it is a luxury to be together?! Li Yunze''s car shuttles through the traffic. Everyone''s fate is like the smallest grain of sand in the universe It floats wantonly, but the dust can settle in the end. The roller of the plane with the roar of the engine crossed the runway of the airport, and the plane climbed slowly... Through the clouds. Gu Beichen tilted his head and looked at the dazzling sunshine in the distance, slightly concentrating. The more dazzling the sunshine, the heavier the shadow Mo''er, I will hold on this journey... Please take care of me! ¡­¡­ Jane counted them one by one and picked them up for a few hours. There were still three left. "Have something to eat before you find it?" Jian Mo looked at the stone Jue Chi coming over and sighed... Nodded. She didn''t get up either, so she sat on the sand and wiped her hands with the wet towel handed over by the servant. "Find another one, and there are two left..." Jane Mo lost her sadness at that time and smiled on her face, which was a kind of happiness under persistence. Shi juechi smiled gently, learned from Jian Mo, and slowly sat on the beach... Eating with her. The waves beat the beach one after another. Jane Mo didn''t resist the sea when she just came. "Jue Chi," Jian Mo looked at Shi Jue Chi, "do you know?" "Well?" The soft voice overflowed the lips of the stone Jue Chi. Jane Mo smiled and said, "sometimes I think that if ah Chen doesn''t come to pick me up by plane... But by boat, or that kind of boat with flowers on it... It must be great." "The boat?" Before Shi juechi spoke, Kani sneered, "it''s estimated that your ah Chen has been buried in the belly of the shark." Jane Mo stared angrily, "imagine, imagine... Understand?!" She rolled her eyes discontentedly. "Siyue deserves it. It''s better for the sample than you..." she said with a groan, "I don''t understand romance!" "..." Carney twitched at the corners of his mouth and looked at Jane Mo discontentedly. "Romantic?" The cold voice came from behind like a ghost. Jian Mo was drinking water and almost choked. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo coldly. "Your suggestion is very good..." his voice said coldly, "why don''t you... Let Chen come by boat, what do you think?" Chapter 743 Jane moo touched her lower lip and looked back She raised her head slightly, looked at Shi Shaoqin''s, and said coldly, "Haunted!" She make complaints about it, and turn away from her eyes and look at the sea and continue to eat. At that time, the anger that sunflower seeds were scattered by Shi Shaoqin seemed to disappear gradually And a pervert in constant anger, that is, they can''t find happiness for themselves. Shi Shaoqin looked coldly at Jian Mo, then at Shi Jue Chi, and finally simply sat down on the other side of Jian mo. The atmosphere is somewhat treacherous, even rigid. Jian Mo ignores Shi Shaoqin. This is someone else''s territory. She doesn''t care where he wants to sit. She ate casually, but the stone juechi and Carney on one side, as well as Mosen standing not far away, had doubts in their eyes. Morson''s face was indifferent, but... His sight became deep. Carney was out of control, and the corners of his mouth began to twitch. According to Jane mo... That''s a long-term look on his face. On the whole, Shi Jue Chi is quite indifferent. However, the doubts at that time gradually deepened another layer "What''s the matter?" Jian Mo felt something wrong and looked at Shi Jue Chi. Shi Jue Chi shook his head with a smile. "Wait, a batch of fruits will arrive. Do you want to go and see what they have?" I seem to be greedy for the fruit... I don''t like it very much "Well, you need to replenish everything now..." Shi Jue Chi said gently, but looked at Shi Shaoqin if there was nothing. There is nothing in the Mo palace. All the food is transported by air every day. It''s just that fruit is more decorative There are not many people who really eat. Shi Jue Chi thought and glanced at Shi Shaoqin... When he saw his line of sight, he looked at Jian Mo faintly. "I''m ready to eat..." Jane Mo stuffed a strawberry into her mouth and said, "when I find the two sunflower seeds, let''s go and have a look..." Then he praised the servant who prepared the fruit, "today''s oranges and strawberries are great!" As soon as the servant listened, he subconsciously looked at Shi Shaoqin, and then said with some embarrassment, "just like Miss Jane." "I like it very much..." Jian Mo said, propped up the ground and continued to look for sunflower seeds in the front area. Shi juechi didn''t help. Everyone looked at Jian Mo looking there "Don''t you think your behavior is childish?" Seeing that Jian Mo was looking a little far away, Shi Jue Chi spoke faintly. Shi Shaoqin glanced at him and didn''t speak. "Is this batch of fruit prepared for foam?" Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin with doubt, but also with affirmation. "Before Chen comes back, she should enjoy it." Shi Shaoqin answered indifferently. Shi Jue Chi smiled, "really?" He narrowed his eyes and looked at Jian Mo, "Shaoqin, in front of me, do you think I will believe such an answer?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak. It should be said that he didn''t explain. He just looked indifferent "Jue Chi, find another one..." At the right time, Jane Mo held a sunflower seed in her hand, smiled and shouted excitedly. Shi Jue Chi reported with an equally bright smile without any words... Yes, but no matter what Jian Mo did, he supported his tenderness. Shi Shaoqin''s face was a little bad and gloomy. Shi Jue Chi glanced at him lightly, and his fundus was vaguely worried Without saying anything, he stood up gently and walked slowly to Jian mo. These days, he has been able to walk occasionally, but he can''t walk too long. "Foam..." "Huh?" Jane Mo stirred the sand and made a sound. "The last one, we won''t find it, will you?" Shi juechi asked. Jane Mo looked up and looked at Shi Jue Chi suspiciously. The sun shines straight on his face, soft and moist, like sunflowers that have come out "What''s the matter?" Jane Mo asked puzzled. Shi Jue Chi squatted down slowly and looked at Jian Mo flat before saying, "life is not perfect. It''s a pity... Sometimes it''s to make us cherish it more." Jian Mo frowned slightly and always felt that there was something deep in Shi Jue Chi''s words, "did Shi Shaoqin say something to you?" Looking at Jian Mo''s hesitation, Shi Jue Chi tapped her forehead with indulgence, "I just want to see today''s fruit, and then... Have a chance to eat your pineapple rice." Jane was stunned and listened to him continue: "who told me before that the pineapple rice made by myself was very fragrant?" "Me!" Jane Mo smiled. "In fact, you''re right... Sometimes regret is beauty." Jane Mo slowly got up, "ah Chen wouldn''t like to see me like this..." "Yes." Shi Jue Chi answered, got up with Jian Mo, took the 359th sunflower seed and walked to the table. And just when Jian Mo''s foot fell into a footprint on the beach and pulled it up The sand on one side flooded the last sunflower seed that had been exposed. Later, people working in Mo palace were tired. They could always see a sunflower in full bloom facing the sun on the beach... Full of hope for light in the dark. Jian Mo carefully packed the sunflower seeds he found, endured it and looked at the indifferent Shi Shaoqin, "can you get me some soil?" Shi Shaoqin glanced lightly and didn''t speak. "I''ll cook pineapple rice for you tonight!" Jane Mo gives the conditions. Shi Shaoqin not only ignored her this time, but even turned around and left "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and showed her teeth and ''hum''. Chi Shao looked at Shi Jue and smiled more and more worried "Let''s go!" Jian Mo nodded, simply without shoes, walked barefoot on the beach to the Mo palace apron When Shi Shaoqin came to the fountain pool in front of the ancient castle, he turned slightly and looked at the figure in the distance... His narrow eyes narrowed gradually. Morson slowly tilted his head and looked at Jian Mo''s back Under the sun, the train of the white skirt moved gently, and the hair that was not tied up also floated gently. If you are a normal man, it seems that you will fantasize about the positive side of this woman? Mosen coldly took back his sight, slightly lowered his eyes... And gathered the darkness from the bottom of his eyes. Shi Shaoqin looked at the figure farther and farther away, gently opened his lips and said, "let''s send the soil suitable for sunflower planting..." At the same time, he took back his sight. On his handsome face, he stepped up without any expression and entered the castle. Mosen didn''t move, but looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back until it disappeared from his eyes. "Are you surprised..." J rushed over like a ghost, "Qin Shao, there''s something wrong these days?" Chapter 744 Morson glanced at J, didn''t say anything, and walked into the castle. J tilted his mouth and muttered with dissatisfaction: "for many years, the ink palace has been ''barren'', but it has to plant sunflowers..." He murmured and didn''t think much. He looked at the back of Jian Mo and Shi juechi and went after them excitedly. "Jane Mo, you haven''t played games with me yet..." In the afternoon sun, I saw a thin boy chasing Jane Mo with big steps. Someone stopped his work and looked at the scene in front of him... Suddenly he felt alive. It''s like... Something injected vitality into a dead place. ¡­¡­ When Gu Beichen arrived in San Francisco, it was the local morning. There was a light rain in the sky and some cold in the air. Gu Beichen, wearing a dark half length windbreaker and casual suit pants, walked out of the airport with a steady and slow step. When he was in Melbourne, Mr. Xiao of XK helped... Here, he relied on himself. Gu Beichen took a taxi and went to the San Francisco branch of emperor group. The branches were surprised at Gu Beichen''s sudden arrival Fortunately, because of Gu muhuai, there has been a big blood change here. Even if he suddenly arrives, there is nothing to deal with. "President, do you need to arrange a hotel for you?" Asked Judy, the Beauty Secretary. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly and continued to open the report in his hand. Judy quit the office wisely. Finally, she looked at the CEO of the branch, strong. After reading the report, Gu Beichen chatted with strong, "Mr. Luo is going to hold a equestrian competition?" "Is the president interested?" Strong raised eyebrows and said, "this competition gold will be used as a global AIDS prevention and cure... Very meaningful, and a lot of people involved." Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep. "After Mr. Luo settled in San Francisco, he was really committed to charity." "Indeed!" Strong smiled and said, "Your Excellency the president will give Mr. Luo the ''congressional gold medal'' this year... Well, this personal honor is given to Asians for the first time." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and the thin corners of his lips showed a faint smile The slender fingers knocked on the desktop once and again... Making the originally relaxed atmosphere and inexplicably nervous. Strong wondered, "is there a problem?" "How?" Gu Beichen said quietly, "arrange it, I''ll go too..." Strong was a little surprised. After all... Gu Beichen is not a person who likes to join in these lively activities. "Charity should be valued by everyone." Gu Beichen said, and the man had stood up, "prepare the trolley. I won''t come these days... I''ll go straight to the equestrian race." "OK." Strong answered and sent Gu Beichen away. It''s raining harder outside. Gu Beichen is driving and has no clear destination. When entering Armstrong Road, Gu Beichen slowly stopped at the roadside. Looking at both sides of the road, like the red fir trees arranged by the soldiers, Gu Beichen had a deep view. Untie the seat belt and open the door The rain outside is like a broken string of pearls. Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone and stood in the middle of the road, integrating the scenery leading to the highest forest in the world into the screen with the size of his palm Mo''er, next time, shall I bring you? It''s beautiful here... Especially in such a rainy day, it seems to walk up with you hand in hand and an umbrella! Gu Beichen looked at the message being sent Clearly know that it can''t be sent out, but until you see the prompt of "sending failed", you can''t laugh at yourself lightly with your thin lips. Hung his hand, Gu Beichen looked at the front with deep vision... Just stood there for a long time. After a long time, a car whistle came. Gu Beichen calmly took back his sight, looked back at the red sports car slowly coming, then turned around and walked to the car on the side of the road. He calmly opened the door and before he got on the bus, the sports car suddenly stopped aside. Gu Beichen subconsciously looked back, and the window of the sports car was also put down in time "Beichen?" Lu man was surprised and said, "is it really you?!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, obviously... He didn''t expect to meet Lu man here. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo haven''t met since they were really together and used by Lu man for the last time. Lu man is a smart woman. She knows where Du is... And what she wants most. Today, she has gone out of Los Angeles, and now she is making a stir in Hollywood. Lu man got out of the car without an umbrella. "What an accident..." She smiled gracefully, "I finished work early today. Thinking of nothing, I came around. I didn''t expect to meet you in San Francisco." "Really unexpected!" Gu Beichen spoke faintly. "Work?" Lu man shrugged, "or... Come on vacation with Jane Mo?" "Work..." Gu Beichen couldn''t hear too much emotion in his voice. Lu man feels the alienation that permeates his body, but he hasn''t seen this man for a long time... It''s one thing to understand the distance between each other, and it''s another thing to really ignore each other. "If you don''t mind..." Lu man hesitated and said, "have lunch together?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Lu man deeply, but for a moment, he recovered his indifference. He looked at the time and said, "OK." "Then I''ll call you when I go down the mountain..." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and got on the bus without stopping. However, while starting the car, he slanted his eyes... The sight falling on Lu man became deeper and deeper. Drive forward, then turn back Gu Beichen''s car caught a cold, wiped Lu man''s car thinly, and left without stopping. Lu man looks at the car that is rapidly getting farther and farther away from her eyes. The corners of her mouth jerk. With a touch of complex emotion in her eyes, she returns to the driver''s seat. Two cars, two directions It''s as if there is no intersection between people... It will run counter to each other. ¡­¡­ Jane Mo sniffed the freshly prepared pineapple rice. The fresh and sweet smell made her swallow it involuntarily. The fruits delivered are top-grade, and the pineapple rice is also extraordinarily fragrant. "Miss Jane''s cooking is great..." the cook praised from the heart. "Thank you!" Jane Mo was not modest. After smiling and thanking, she motioned the servant to take the food out. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window with a cup of red wine in his hand At the beginning of the night, moonlight and lights are intertwined, revealing the mystery of the sea alone. "Jane Mo, Jane mo..." J suddenly came in with the computer in his arms. "Come and have a look!" He put down the computer on the dining table, "Gu Beichen''s lace news... Big beauty, like your eyes!" Chapter 745 Jane Mo frowned and was about to say hello to everyone for dinner. Shi Shaoqin also turned around at the right time and looked at J Shi juechi frowned slightly, looked at J and looked at Shi Shaoqin. Instinctively conscious, he thinks Shaoqin did it! Jane Mo walked over calmly, with only curiosity on her face and no other expression... Her trust in Gu Beichen. "Look!" J pushed the computer, then looked at the pineapple rice put down by the servant, "wow... It smells good..." After his excited admiration, he ignored Jane Mo and went straight to get pineapple rice. However, before reaching out, he was stopped by Shi Shaoqin''s fierce eyes. Jian Mo glanced at the wronged J and looked coldly at Shi Shaoqin, "there''s yours, but don''t you think you should wash your hands first?" At the same time, she looked at J. J skimmed his mouth, but he was obedient to wash his hands Jane Mo''s eyes fell on the computer screen. When she saw that it was Lu man, she was a little surprised. The light rain hit the clean glass window. Under the hazy blur, Gu Beichen and Lu man sat face to face Lu man slightly lifted her long hair. When she tilted her head, her eyes were full of smiles. At first glance... They were really similar to Jane Mo''s eyes. Jian Mo felt his hand, gently touched Gu Beichen on the screen, sighed and said, "before, someone said Lu man''s eyes were like Shen Chu, so ah Chen liked her..." Then she raised her eyes, "later, she felt that ah Chen married me because my eyes are like Shen Chu." "Otherwise?" Shi Shaoqin hissed coldly. Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and smiled, but... It''s fake. Without answering, she closed the computer and said, "dinner!" Then she deliberately said to Shi Shaoqin, "you are stained with Jue Chi light..." Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful handsome face didn''t have half an expression. A pair of narrow eyes narrowed slightly and ignored Jane mo. This meal was the first time that several people had dinner at the same table in the restaurant since he pinched Jane mo. People are sometimes strange In the past, apart from Jue Chi, what he disliked most was sitting at the same table with others. However, there was Jian Mo in those days. Listening to her and Jue chi ''chattering'' at the dinner table, I thought it was a kind of enjoyment. "Awful!" After eating, Shi Shaoqin made a indifferent evaluation. "No..." J retorted first. "It smells good." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, as if he was very dissatisfied with J''s dismantling. "It''s really delicious..." J also said definitely, "it''s not the taste, that feeling..." he thought for a while, but he didn''t think of a reason. "It''s delicious anyway." "It''s not just to prepare food," said Shi Jue Chi youyou. "Here, there''s a heart for food and people who are about to eat food." The chef''s food lies in skill and delicacy. And what the family makes is not food... It''s rice! No matter how skillful the cook is, there is no way to convey the warmth and warmth Shi Shaoqin glanced at Shi Jue Chi, looked at Jian Mo, and finally... Ate all the pineapple rice he disliked. After dinner, Shi juechi went for a walk with Jian Mo, and j followed... Pestering her to play games with him later. "You seem to have something on your mind?" Jian Mo found sensitively that Shi Jue Chi seemed to be easily distracted when dinner arrived. "Jue, just keep smiling, if you''re so gentle?" "It''s not impossible, but some people don''t want to." Jane Mo hit the nail on the head. Shi Jue Chi glanced at Jian Mo with a deep vision. When she was about to lose control of her inner emotions, she hurried back and looked ahead A strong and kind woman like Mo Mo is the one who can most affect a man''s heart. Shi juechi felt a little heavy. He doesn''t know what happened with Shaoqin on the beach before Momo... But obviously, Shaoqin is different at some time. He, who always loves cleanliness, would sit on the beach. Even, with high requirements for food, he finished the pineapple rice that was not beautiful and tasted better than the chef All kinds of top fruits and vegetables transported in every day, as well as fresh milk bought from a ranch in New Zealand and flown by special plane twice a day What does everything seem to mean? Is it for Gu Beichen? Shi juechi''s heart became more and more heavy. Doing so much, he didn''t see Shaoqin go to Gu Beichen to "ask for credit"! "You and Shaoqin want soil. Do you want to plant sunflowers?" Shi juechi asked. Jane Mo nodded, looked at the turbulent moonlight on the sea and said, "I don''t know why... I think ah Chen sent me sunflower seeds not just to make me strong." "Huh?" Shi Jue Chi was puzzled. Jian Mo looked at Shi Jue Chi, "I can''t tell... Just suddenly want to plant." She smiled. "There is no fresh breath of nature here except the back mountain..." Shi Jue Chi''s eyes were slightly deep... Not without, but Shaoqin didn''t allow it! "If so many sunflower seeds survive..." Jian Mo smiled because of fantasy. "The yellow sunflowers follow the sun from morning to night... Must be very beautiful." Shi juechi looked at Jian mo. she was pregnant now. Her smile at the moment... Showed hope under the charm. At the moment, what Jane Mo didn''t know was that she accidentally said what Gu Beichen wanted. Sea breeze, moonlight, human shadow Shi Jue Chi unconsciously rowed across a crazy idea in the sea, but soon he stopped it. No Absolutely not! Shaoqin can''t fall in love with Mo Mo, so... Things will only be more complicated. But Shi Jue Chi tangled up... If Mo Mo''s good can get Shaoqin out of that past, will there be a different ending?! Shi juechi felt that he was too selfish. He appreciated Jian Mo and even vaguely gave her some feelings that he shouldn''t have But in the end, Shaoqin is his brother. At this moment, he even hopes, and even... Wants to use foam to save Shaoqin?! For such a self, Shi juechi suddenly felt disgusted Breathing, uncontrollably fast. When Jian Mo found that Shi Jue Chi was already pale, "Jue Chi?!" Jian Mo was stunned. Before waiting for a reaction, he saw Shi Jue Chi''s hand covering the position of his heart, and his face became more and more ugly "J..." Jian Mo shouted to j, who was playing by the sea, "come on! Call someone..." J was stunned at first. When he reacted, Carney had run from a distance. "Mo Mo..." Shi juechi felt uncomfortable and became laborious in speaking. However, there was something urgent in Jian Mo''s eyes, "you... You want... Want..." Stone Jue Chi''s words haven''t finished yet. People can''t support it. Just, at the moment before closing his eyes and coma... His eyes looking at Jian mo were extremely complex. So that later, he hated himself. That day... Why couldn''t he insist on finishing his words. Chapter 746 The first aid was carried out in the most professional operating room. Fortunately, Shi Shaoqin didn''t agree with Shi juechi''s request and immediately asked the doctors to leave the Mo palace Jane Mo looked anxiously at the closed door of the operating room, and the corners of her mouth were tight. "Hey," J said to Jian Mo, "don''t worry too much... The doctors and equipment here are the best. Jue will be fine." The comforting voice sounds a little awkward, but it makes Jane Mo extra warm. "Thank you..." As soon as J heard this, he blushed, turned his mouth awkwardly, and didn''t speak. Jane Mo doesn''t feel better because of J''s comfort. No matter how good the doctor is, but if her physical condition doesn''t allow it, she is often... Powerless. This is too clear for Jane Mo who has experienced her mother''s affairs. Even, because it was also a heart attack, it was even more stressful for her. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. Just one glance, he saw through her mind. "It''s getting late..." Shi Shaoqin said indifferently, "you go back first." Then he glanced at J and motioned. "I''ll go back with you first..." J said, "you big belly, can''t wait here all the time?" "Is it different if I go back and worry?" Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin stubbornly. In fact, she was a little grateful for his kindness, but what she said was also true. "Whatever you..." Shi Shaoqin said coldly, coldly taking back his sight. The atmosphere was somewhat treacherous. It was because Shi juechi''s heart suddenly rejected his body, and the dignified air became more and more lifeless. Mohsen was standing in the distance like an invisible man... As usual. However, under those indifferent eyes, there was a faint cold light... After passing through Jian Mo, he slightly drooped his eyelids. ¡­¡­ It''s raining all the time. It''s not big, but it''s foggy. San Francisco is shrouded in it. Rows of high-rise buildings are shrouded in magic "Are you going to Mr. Luo''s equestrian race, too?" Lu man was surprised. "I remember you didn''t like to attend such an occasion." "The emperor Qingqi will be in the United States recently..." it is estimated that some projects will be carried out in Beichen Qingqi. " Lu man doesn''t have any doubt after hearing him say so. Between rich and powerful families, the interests are often not at the negotiation table... But at these gatherings and occasions. Lu man drooped her eyes and gently shook the red wine cup in her hand, as if she was suffering something After a while, she took a breath secretly, suddenly raised her eyes and said, "do you have a girlfriend? Why don''t... I go with you?" Gu Beichen looked at Lu man''s line of sight and gradually became deep, but it was only a moment and he recovered his indifference. "OK..." Lu man was stunned. Unexpectedly, Gu Beichen agreed. Smiling, Lu man gradually climbed from the corner of his mouth to the tip of his eyes. Lu man''s enchanting slightly tilted his head, and his sight was full of charm: "that day, I will arrange the time..." Gu Beichen looked at Lu man''s bright eyes and gradually lost his mind. In the past, when Jane Mo teased him... That pair of eyes always overflowed with such light. Unfortunately, even if it is the same, there is only one Jian Mo in the world who can arouse his bath hope. In the end, I was absent-minded about the meal "Wait a minute and make an appointment with the director to talk about the play," Lu man is also a wink. "Then... I''ll see you on the day of the equestrian race." "Yes." Gu Beichen is always light. Lu man stared at him deeply, got up and left the restaurant first However, when I went out, I unconsciously looked at Gu Beichen, and there was a more complex emotion in the bottom of my eyes. The waiter opened the glass door, and the doorman carefully opened his umbrella and waited Lu man walked to the car, opened the door and couldn''t help looking back At the right time, Gu Beichen also looked sideways. The two looked at each other through the hazy drizzle. Gu Beichen''s cold face was so indifferent that Lu man smiled at him and turned to get into the car. Gu Beichen was at the moment when Lu man got on the bus, and the ink pupil became deep and bottomless At the moment when the car started and entered the traffic flow, the thin lips overflowed with a smile like nothing, which was strange. When the car phone of "jingling bell" rang, Lu man, who was driving the car, was suddenly surprised, looked at the position of the car phone screen and smiled at the lower lip corner. Secretly swallowed, and Lu man pressed the answer button. "Did you enjoy your meal?" On the other side of the phone, there was a slightly thick middle-aged man''s voice, which showed the depth accumulated by years. Lu man bit his teeth, pulled the corners of his mouth and said, "it''s ok..." "How does Gu Beichen treat you?" "Neither hot nor cold..." Lu man said honestly, "he was not particularly good to me before. Later, he had a wife, which made him more distant." "Ha ha!" The man smiled in a low voice, "such men are all your women''s favorite?" Lu man took a deep breath and didn''t answer. He just looked at the road ahead and endured. "Lu man," said the man with a slight sigh, "you are sometimes too rational... Worrying!" Lu man pulled at the corners of her mouth, trying to make herself easier, but obviously, she failed. After looking at the road conditions, she immediately stopped her car in a temporary parking space. Lu man was a little anxious. Even his forehead overflowed with fine sweat. "I asked. He will go that day..." "No surprise!" The man''s voice was relaxed, "but he went straight..." "Songxian, you..." Lu man forbeared and wanted to say something, but she finally forbeared. "What?" Luo Songxian chuckled, "can''t you give up?" "How?!" Lu man was almost instinctive and hurriedly explained, "I''m just..." she endured, "I''m just afraid. After all, Gu Beichen is not a simple character." "So... Are you worried about me?" Luo Songxian said softly. Obviously, it should be the expectation of surprise, but such words fall in Lu man''s ears, but they are particularly harsh. Even, there was a smell of danger and blood. Lu man''s breathing was a little messy. She closed her eyes and tried to calm down, "I''m your man, I''m worried about you..." she bit her lip and opened her eyes, "... It''s natural." "That''s good..." Luo Songxian said, and the last word "good" slowed down the ending. "I''ll talk to the director about the progress of the play later," Lu man said hurriedly, fearing that he would reveal any emotion later. "I, I''ll hang up first." "Yes!" Luo Songxian answered. The car seat was weak, and the whole man was lying on the ground, paralyzed Chapter 747 "Lord Luo, this is the news I just got..." Wang Qicheng, the housekeeper of Luo''s manor, saw Luo Songxian hang up the phone, walked forward and handed over a fax. Luo Songxian calmly took over, slightly drooping eyelids, looking at the information on the fax. "Shaoqin, are you going to prepare for a formal war with me?" In Luo Songxian''s voice, there was a faint smile, and even a trace of excitement under expectation. "Who knows?" Wang Qicheng said with a slight droop of his eyes, "in fact, he has been in peace for so many years." Luo Songxian handed the fax paper to Wang Qicheng, took out a golf club from one side and looked, "I heard before... Gu Beichen was the only one in Mo palace. He left after three months?" "Yes!" Wang Qicheng replied. Luo Songxian used a golf club to draw a small white ball, "I really have some skills..." Wang Qicheng frowned slightly, "Lord Luo, Gu Beichen is here this time. It''s a coincidence!" "Unfortunately..." Luo Songxian gently waved his club. "If Shaoqin wants to come out, it depends on whether I want to." As he spoke, he heard a small ''Bang'' sound, and the little white ball went straight into the hole That feeling, as if his hand controlled everything. The rain outside gradually stopped, but the fog became stronger. Luo Songxian threw it at random, and Wang Qicheng instinctively caught the golf club. "Gu Beichen''s purpose is not simple this time, but he even matched the timeline of Shaoqin''s action..." He said softly and walked to the window with deep thought. "Lord Luo means that it is possible for the two to work together?" Wang Qicheng asked after inserting the club back into the bucket. Luo Songxian''s vision gradually narrowed, "a abnormal psychology can create another abnormal life..." He slowly put a deep smile on the corner of his mouth, but that smile didn''t spread for half a minute. "Let''s have a look first..." Luo Songxian took back his sight and turned to the sofa. "See how Gu Beichen does it, and then!" "Yes!" Wang Qicheng answered, "I will pay attention." "No..." Luo Songxian sat down and began to cook tea. "Let Lu man be careful first. Now we can''t bear it and scare the snake." "Yes, I see." Wang Qicheng answered again, then bowed slightly and stepped back. In such a large leisure hall, you can only hear the sound of tea rolling slightly Luo Songxian crossed his legs and slowly lay back on the sofa... His sight fell in front, and the smile from the corners of his mouth gradually spread out. "The little thing began to bite..." Luo Songxian smiled and whispered slowly, and even the bottom of his eyes were filled with a smile. "I''d like to see if your teeth have grown up!" ¡­¡­ After Gu Beichen and Lu man separated, they went back to the hotel. He didn''t go back to his room. He just went to the hotel cafe and listened to the soft European and American classic music while sending a message with Xiao Jing. Xiao Jing: Lu man''s recent new play was indeed filmed in San Francisco. It will take about half a month. Chen Shao: she seems to be developing too fast in Hollywood? Xiao Jing: Chen Shao still knows a lot about the entertainment industry?! Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jingfa and said with teasing words, the eagle''s eyes were slightly deep: why, it''s very unexpected? Xiao Jing rubbed his forehead and looked out at the dark ink space. He was speechless and choked: Chen Shao, should it be afternoon over there? It''s lonely to be alone in a coffee shop... In fact, you can invite Lu man to accompany you?! Gu Beichen''s sight became deeper and deeper: he gave too much sweets. It''s not fun to show his horse''s feet so soon. Xiao Jing: Chen Shao, I always think you are a person who can only be friends Chen Shao: Oh?! Xiao Jing sighed softly: you are too calculating... Or, except for the people you want to trust, you have a sense of distance. Many people think that Chen Shao is alienated and indifferent because he is high. No! This person, whether it was the former Sunshine Youth or the later ruthless emperor President He has a city in his heart. There are only people in the city he wants to put in! Gu Beichen looked at the information sent by Xiao Jing. Gradually, Mo Tong became familiar with it No one is willing to close himself. It can only be said that the smarter the person is, the lonelier he is. Gu Beichen was slightly distracted. The mobile phone shook in his hand at the right time. He looked at the mobile phone Xiao Jing: Chen Shao, I suddenly remembered a question Chen Shao: say! Xiao Jing: why don''t we call and send text messages here? Gu Beichen lightly hooked one side of his thin lip and replied calmly: the phone is finished in a few words. Text messages can kill time. With a "click", Xiao Jing only felt a lightning strike at him Xiao Jing wailed and quickly slid his finger on the screen: enjoy the happy afternoon over there. It''s not dawn here... Chen Shao, are you really good?! Gu Beichen''s mouth gently raised a smile like nothing, and a pair of eagle eyes gradually became deep. Xiao Jing, gnashing his teeth, sent another text message: I see... Where are you killing time? Because you can''t send text messages to young lady, you can only find comfort here! "..." Gu Beichen frowned instantly. Then, a short interest reply passed: you know the boss''s mind so well, you say, should I give you a raise? In the faint words, there is a trace of gloomy breath Xiao Jing immediately bared his teeth and sent a text message: if you dare to add, are you afraid I dare not want it? Xiao Jing: there''s also a video conference in the morning. You''re sad about spring and autumn alone in the rain in San Francisco. I''ll go back to sleep! Two text messages were connected, one with anger and the other with revenge After sending, Xiao Jing directly set Gu Beichen as the blacklist, and then threw the mobile phone aside After looking at the fish belly white that had been slightly exposed in the East, Xiao Jing turned his eyes and planned to sleep for a while. Gu Beichen looked at the message and smiled. He didn''t reply again. He can guarantee that he replied... Xiao Jing can''t receive it either. Gu Beichen pressed off the SMS interface and opened the album easily Looking at Jian Mo in the photo, Gu Beichen whispered with a smile in his eyes: "if you come up and watch me and Xiao Jing send text messages like this... Are you going to think about it again?" "Ah Chen, do you know... You and Xiao Jing are the strongest combination in Los Angeles!" Gu Beichen imagined that Jian Mo seemed to be around him "Tut Tut, if you put this paragraph on the Forum... Hahaha, it will definitely cause an explosion! It must be marked with a hot post within a few seconds..." Thinking, Gu Beichen''s smile gradually filled the bottom of his eyes, but then it became bitter. Chapter 748 Gu Beichen tilted his head and looked out of the window Rain, I don''t know when it began to rain again. As if, naked stripped away his deepest thoughts... And worry! He doesn''t trust such an excellent Mo''er. However, Luo Songxian''s business is not as simple as luminous diamond. If you want to solve it... You can''t be impatient at all. Under the rain in San Francisco, there was a touch of melancholy, and the ink palace night was filled with sadness under worry. Jane Mo can''t stand for a long time. Fortunately, J has the foresight to move a chair for her. "Drink something first..." Xiao Siyue''s voice came, and a warm glass of milk had been handed to Jian mo. Jian Mo looked at Xiao Siyue and said, "thank you..." Xiao Siyue pulled the corners of her mouth and didn''t say anything However, while Jian Mo took back his sight, he looked at Shi Shaoqin and nodded imperceptibly. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes crossed indifferently and gently fell on Jian mo... Watching her holding the milk cup, her eyes narrowed slightly. No one spoke again, waiting quietly. The best doctor, the best equipment... But everyone knows very well that they may not be able to save Shi juechi''s life. As time passed by, the night in the Mo palace had changed from a dead silence... Slowly, a little dawn appeared on the sea in the East. Jane Mo wrinkled her eyebrows and frowned tightly. She only felt that her eyelids were pressed. There was no way to move. "Hmm..." Jane Mo whispered, turned her head left and right several times, and finally slowly opened her heavy eyelids. The purpose is the familiar environment in the ink palace these days, relief, antique lamps She''s in the bedroom?! Thinking, Jane suddenly woke up. She looked around to make sure she was in her bedroom and suddenly frowned. She is clearly waiting for Jue Chi''s inspection. Why is she here?! Jane Mo thought hard. Finally, she just vaguely remembered... It seemed that she felt a little sleepy after drinking the milk. "Jue Chi..." Jane Mo suddenly screamed and didn''t continue to think about how she was suddenly sleepy. She lifted the quilt and got out of bed. She didn''t even bother to dress up and hurried out Opening the door, Xiao Siyue just came over. "Siyue..." "Qin Shao asked me to come and see you." Xiao Siyue said with a smile, "Jue Shao is all right." If Jian Mo didn''t ask, he was still in his throat. Listening to Xiao Siyue, he was relieved immediately "How could it be so serious?" Jian Mo breathed out, "Jue Chi just told me that he had an operation and was relatively weak." "Jueshao had a heart transplant just 20 days ago." Xiao Siyue didn''t hide it. Even when she said this sentence, she had some purpose in mind. Jane Mo frowned suddenly. She knew the operation too well After all, if my mother had the physical permission, she would have to undergo heart replacement surgery. "What did you say to Jue yesterday?" Xiao Siyue asked, "why does Jue Shao suddenly get sick?" Jane Mo listened and looked at a loss After thinking about it for a while, he said in a confused state: "I just said that if you plant sunflowers, they will look good... There''s nothing left to say Xiao Siyue could not help frowning. Looking at Jane Mo, it''s obviously not a lie. If this is the case, jueshao should be happy... After all, what he wants to do most is to get the Mo palace out of its lethargy. But if it''s a happy onset... Is it a little unreasonable?! "I''ll wash up and go and see him!" Jane Mo said and went inside. Xiao Siyue''s lips moved and wanted to say something, but at last he didn''t say anything... He just looked at the residual figure at the bottom of his eyes and gradually clenched his hand. Jane foam soon finished washing. Now it''s simple and light, and there''s no need for makeup. She thought that Shi juechi was really all right, but when she saw the people lying on the bed, pale without a trace of blood, and there were all kinds of instruments beside the bed, she was not well. "Dr. Smith," Jane Mo looked at Smith and asked, "is he all right?" Smith sighed heavily and shook his head. "The situation is not optimistic..." he said helplessly. "According to the situation, it is because the mood is greatly fluctuated, resulting in the inability of the heart." "How?!" Jane Mo frowned. "Yesterday we just went for a walk, even... Didn''t say anything special?!" She doesn''t understand. It can''t be because she wants to plant sunflowers. Is it exciting to Jue Chi?! Smith sighed again, not just because of Shi juechi''s condition. Originally, after a month''s dangerous period, everyone can leave But now the situation is obviously impossible! ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin sat in the restaurant, and the cook was busy cooking breakfast. Less relaxed after coming from Jianmo, more dignified. "Qin Shao, breakfast will be ready in ten minutes." The servant came to report the progress. "Call Jane mo." Shi Shaoqin spoke faintly. "I''ll go, I''ll go..." J just came to the door of the restaurant and said hurriedly. Shi Shaoqin answered, "she should be there..." "Oh." J answered and went to find Jane mo. In the restaurant, calm was restored again, but the atmosphere was still strange. When Jane Mo came to the restaurant, the whole look was angry, with a touch of melancholy. The cook put up the exquisite breakfast. Jane Mo had no appetite Her heart is always blocked with something, like cotton, filled, unable to open and out of breath. "Although it''s not optimistic, it won''t be very bad..." Shi Shaoqin said indifferently, "it''s much better than before." Jian Mo subconsciously looked at Shi Shaoqin and looked at him stupidly. "Your mother''s situation, how can I allow it to happen to Jue Chi?" Shi Shaoqin said softly. At the same time, his eyes were indifferent and cold to Jian Mo, "do you think I''m Chen? Ignore and let things go?" "..." Jian Mo contradicted Shi Shaoqin''s judgment. "Why, I''m not right?" Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "if Chen had been a little more attentive to you... Your mother would not have died." If he were more attentive, even a little... He would know that Jane Mo married him for Sumer''s medical expenses. With Chen''s ability, it''s just a matching heart... How easy?! Besides, Su Mo''s situation is not as complicated as juechi And Chen''s side, there is a surgery and cardiothoracic lung, extremely powerful Li Yunze. Jane Mozhe her lower lip, without refutation, just took back her eyes and said faintly, "at the beginning, he had no obligation to be loyal to me." After all, each other takes what they need. Shi Shaoqin sniffed coldly, "it''s not that he has no obligation, nor is he careless..." His eyes became dark, and a faint smile overflowed from the corners of his beautiful mouth, "but he just wanted to find a breakthrough from you... A breakthrough that can put down the darkness in his heart!" Chapter 749 The atmosphere in the restaurant suddenly condensed. Jian Mo''s hand holding the spoon gradually clenched J frowned and didn''t like the atmosphere... However, seeing Shi Shaoqin''s face, he didn''t dare to speak. "So what?" After asking, Jian Mo turned his head and looked at Shi Shaoqin. "The past is always the past..." Jian Mo said silently, "after investigation, sad, or tangled, can everything go back and change?!" Shi Shaoqin sneered coldly, and the corners of his mouth were full of mockery of Jian mo. Jian Mo''s hand holding the spoon tightened. "Shi Shaoqin, what do you want?" She''s had enough. Sometimes... She thinks this person is not as bad as she thought. She is not a fool, nor will she deliberately ignore the facts These days when I came to Mo palace, it was delicious and delicious. Except for that accident, I pinched my neck... Shi Shaoqin was really nice to her. However, this person''s heart is really distorted... He doesn''t want you to be too happy all the time. "What do I want?" Shi Shaoqin sniffed coldly, "why don''t you ask yourself what you''re rejecting instead of what I want, Mo''er?" Jane Mo bit her teeth and stared. However, Shi Shaoqin was like a sharp knife. He peeled off the foam a little and wrapped some subconscious camouflage. "You just mind this thing in your heart..." Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "Jian Mo, you never thought that if Gu Beichen could care about you earlier, would your mother not die?" Jane Mo''s lips "Or, you have no extravagant hope. If you have him, can you find the right heart source earlier?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice became sharp slightly. Jane Mo''s lips are tighter. "Especially, after Jue Chi, you don''t have a little extravagant hope..." Shi Shaoqin said coldly, a pair of eyes, obviously indifferent, but looked at Jian Mo fiercely. "I hope that at the beginning, there was such a medical team, medical equipment and heart supply. Are you not alone now?" Jane Mo smiled, "you''re wrong!" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, as if he couldn''t respond to Jian Mo''s mockery. Jane Mo loosened her hand, put down the spoon in her hand, calmed her face and said seriously, "I''m not alone..." She restrained her eyes and hissed, "I have no family affection, but I have gained love... Shi Shaoqin, you don''t understand!" Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin again, "the love I harvest will finally be family affection... Because I have milk bags, I have Xiaoyan, and I will even have lovely daughters in the future. These are family affection." Ignoring Shi Shaoqin''s gloomy face, Jian Mo continued, "you just stabbed me in the heart. Mom''s thing is a regret that I can''t make up in my life." Shi Shaoqin coldly converged his eyes and took a sip of coffee. "But I won''t blame ah Chen... Because it''s not his fault." Jane Mo said calmly. The duck''s mouth seemed to overflow with cold foam. "At that time, my mother''s illness, my father''s company''s debt... Even the harm left by Jian Heng," Jian Mo slowly lay back on the seat. "I seem strong, but I really can''t hold it." "How wide can a woman''s shoulders be? Even a strong woman... She can''t bear the sky falling!" "At that moment, a man who wrote his name in the palm of my hand, you will never understand what that means to me..." Jane Mo''s mouth gradually overflowed with a smile, "we are trading. I never expect him to pay more attention to me. Even, I''m afraid of his attention." Shi Shaoqin slowly put down his coffee cup and refused to comment on Jian Mo''s words. "Because I have my self-esteem, even when I agree to ah Chen''s conditions... I still feel proud." Jian Mo smiled with self mockery, "in fact, I can''t blame him from beginning to end... He gave me enough money to maintain my mother''s medical expenses, so that I still have my mind on architectural design." Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin again, "your accusation is in the wrong direction..." Speaking of this, Jane Mo''s eyes were obviously filled with a thin layer of water mist, "because it''s me who''s wrong!" In his sad voice, Shi Shaoqin suddenly frowned. "If it wasn''t that I couldn''t give up my last bit of pride..." Jian Mo smiled mockingly, "I''ll tell ah Chen about my mother''s situation and mother''s needs..." If she said, even if there was no love at that time, she would promise... Ah Chen would not sit idly by and talk to her about any conditions with her mother''s illness. There is such a man, you can always misunderstand him, but he never goes against common sense. This man is the man who wrote his name in the palm of her hand... Gu Beichen. Jane Mo gently rubbed the ring and tattooed there Because the man wrote his name in the palm of her hand from the first side, the position closest to the heart. What''s the use of complaining? In fact, many mistakes and unwillingness are not caused by others, but by themselves. Jane Mo lowered her eyes, collected the water mist from the bottom of her eyes and began to eat "Don''t try to make me hate ah Chen," Jian Mo''s voice showed indifference under alienation. "In that case, I will only hate you more!" The atmosphere became tense again Don''t breathe, J. However, I think what Jane Mo said is quite reasonable and want to give her encouragement. Later, I thought that he was with Shi Shaoqin and shouldn''t... he had to keep showing his teeth. After a hard breakfast, J wants to find Jane Mo to play games with him, but it''s also clear that Jue is less ill. She must be in no mood. Besides, Qin Shao just provoked her! "So boring..." J looked at the figure of Jane Mo leaving the restaurant after eating, and muttered bitterly. Jane Mo stopped and looked back at J: "I''m going to take a walk, and then go to see Jue Chi. Do you want to join me?" J''s eyes lit up immediately and nodded hurriedly. He didn''t see the eyes projected by Shi Shaoqin at all. He got up at once Because of too much force, the chair was directly overturned J doesn''t care. It seems that Jane Mo won''t call him together for fear of slowing down. The servant felt that the atmosphere was more strange and silently stepped forward to pick up the chair. Just as Jane Mo and j were about to leave, they came forward and suddenly said, "the soil you want will arrive at the apron in half an hour. What are you going to do?" If you ask clearly, there is a hint of "seeking attention". Jian Mo stopped again, turned his head and looked at Shi Shaoqin without concealment Chapter 750 Jane Mo''s eyes showed a penetrating smile, very light, but it was clear to her chest. Shi Shaoqin hated Jian Mo''s eyes, but he seemed to have a desire in his heart. That feeling... It''s like seeing it, but I can''t catch it. "You give me earth, I''ll make you pineapple rice..." Jane Mo suddenly said with a smile, her eyes shining with the luster of youth. "I''ll make you a delicious meal at noon. You let me choose the place where the earth falls to the ground... How about it?" Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo, with a sly light in her eyes "Haven''t I eaten?" Shi Shaoqin sneered. However, in such a cold voice, even J heard a strange... As if it was an awkward feeling. J looks at Shi Shaoqin, Jian Mo and thinks he thinks too much. "Who hasn''t eaten?" Jane Mo rolled her eyes. "But have you ever had a home cooked meal?" "..." Shi Shaoqin frowned and then said, "when I was in the seaside city, wasn''t it?" There was a sneer in the light voice. Jane Mo also sneered, "what kind of behavior do you hypnotize yourself while hypnotizing others?" "If you think so, that''s good," she asked "..." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, "sharp teeth and sharp mouth!" "Is it a deal?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "I promise I''ll make you satisfied." Shi Shaoqin coldly withdrew his sight and ignored Jian Mo directly. Jane Mo skimmed her lips and didn''t say anything. She turned and left "Hey, did you compromise like this?" J was dissatisfied. "I thought you would make Qin Shao agree." Jian Mo looked at J coldly, "seriously, has Shi Shaoqin always been so awkward..." "You think too much!" J immediately retorted, "it''s the first time I''ve seen him like this." In Mo palace, j is an outsider who can be close to Shi Shaoqin According to Shi juechi''s words, that is, J has no limit to his powerful computer programming, and the rest is a simple child Such a person is not dangerous to Shi Shaoqin and naturally does him no harm. Jane Mo frowned and walked forward silently At the beginning, she thought Shi Shaoqin was a devil who could control people''s hearts. Later, he felt that this man was so terrible that he was abnormal But now, she always feels that this person has something that people can''t see clearly at some time. That feeling is like breaking the cocoon into a butterfly. Of course, she knows her metaphor is a little thunder! Soil is transported by air. The flight attendant said that pH value is the most suitable for sunflower growth. Speaking of this, they were even excited in their eyes... But they didn''t dare to show it. "Hey, where are you going to put it?" J grabbed a handful of black soil and sniffed, "what I smell every day is the smell of sand, and the soil is very fragrant." "Well, you can try it. It tastes good!" Jane Mo''s thoughts were a little free, she said casually. J grumbled discontentedly, waiting for Jane Mo to deal with the pile of soil. Jian Mo did not live up to his expectations and found a very good place... J also looked forward to Shi Shaoqin''s response. "Dong Dong!" Morson knocked on the door and then pushed the door into the study. "Qin Shao," Morson said quietly, "Miss Jane brought the soil to the front door of the castle." His voice fell, and then he looked slightly up at Shi Shaoqin... Waiting for him to get angry. It''s a miracle to allow Jane Mo to plant sunflowers Plant in front of the castle, hehe! Deep, deep, dark eyes. Waiting, often with expectations However, after expectation, if it is not as thought in the heart, what it brings is often disappointment. Shi Shaoqin didn''t get angry, and even walked to the window His eyes drooped slightly, and he saw that Jian Mo instructed those people to pile the soil next to the fountain first, as if he were talking to j, frowning slightly, very distressed. After watching for a while, Shi Shaoqin saw that Jian Mo sat down on one step. The sun is just right now, a little scorching. J dog legs are very these days. Seeing Jane Mo fanning with her hands, she immediately stood where she could block the sun. "Jane Mo, do you really want to plant here?" J''s eyes brightened. "Aren''t you afraid that Qin Shao will directly pour the soil into the sea for you?" "Do you think it''s a kind of pretentious, so what''s the difference?" It''s more or less related to the darkness in Shi Shaoqin''s heart that nothing is allowed to grow here. Ah Chen will call him "Shaoqin". Even if their relationship is hostile, they should sympathize with each other. No one really wants to stay in the dark all the time. Ah Chen sent her sunflower seeds. Does it also mean that? The problem is that Jane is looking at the door of the gumbo, because the light is not looking at her No one is the Savior of anyone. She won''t childishly think she can make Shi Shaoqin change anything?! However, she could see that juechi hoped Shi Shaoqin could get out of the darkness She is willing to do something for Juchi. "Right here!" Jane Mo said firmly, and then thought about how to dig a hole and bury the earth. "Qin Shao doesn''t speak. No one made it for you." J glanced at Jian Mo''s big belly and looked like watching a good play. "If you are like this, I don''t think you can even count on yourself." I''m kidding He wants to see a good play when he starts construction here... But someone has to be afraid of Qin Shao. Jian Mo saw the problem from the appearance of J''s ghost spirit. When she was about to speak, she saw Shi Shaoqin''s indifference in copying his pocket with both hands "Who allowed you to get the soil here?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was cold under indifference. Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin and didn''t speak. J has been scared to his heart. Looking at Shi Shaoqin, he secretly blames himself. I should have advised Jane Mo just now. Now it''s over... Qin Shao is really angry. "You," said Jane Mo calmly, "can you find some people to help me spread the soil here?" "..." J twitched at the corner of his mouth, suddenly looked at Jane Mo and winked at her. But Jian Mo didn''t look at him, but quietly looked at Shi Shaoqin and said, "of course, you can refuse, anyway..." she shrugged. "Even if you want to plant here, you will refuse on purpose." "..." J secretly bared his teeth, "Jane foam?!" Jane Mo glanced at him and then got up, "forget it..." She sighed softly, "according to your temperament, I guess," she looked at Shi Shaoqin and looked like I knew it very well. "You asked me to get the soil to give me hope, and then you didn''t agree with what I had next, just to see me disappointed." Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo and his sight became deeper "I understand, and I''m really lost!" Jane Mo sighed and turned, "J, I''m a little uncomfortable. I want to walk alone. Don''t follow." With that, she drooped her shoulders and wanted to leave... Her figure was bleak. "Who said I didn''t agree with you?" At the right time, Shi Shaoqin''s voice came Jane Mo immediately flashed a sly smile at the bottom of her eyes. At the same time, Shi Shaoqin frowned. Just now... He blurted out without thinking at all! Chapter 751 The atmosphere was strange. Some people looked at Jian Mo and others looked at Shi Shaoqin. J looked surprised and stared... As if he couldn''t believe that Shi Shaoqin would agree?! Wait What Qin Shao just said is to agree?! He doesn''t read much. Don''t fool him! J thought, suddenly looked at Jian Mo and saw a fixed look projected from her... Suddenly, he just felt that he was struck by thunder. Is this the end of the world or something? Qin Shao, it''s too easy to compromise However, if you can plant here, you can see a large number of sunflowers as soon as you go out. It feels good to think about it! Compared with J''s simple idea, Mo Sen, who followed behind Shi Shaoqin, glanced at Jian Mo with a pair of indifferent eyes and looked down indifferently. However, at the moment of hanging, there was a cold light at the bottom of my eyes... Fleeting. No one saw, or even felt. However, the cold light is like a little bit of precipitated and accumulated dust, which will erupt into a strong wind in the near future. In Mo palace, in Shi Shaoqin''s words, Jian Mo saw the so-called efficiency. Digging and filling, surrounded by colored stones... Although she didn''t know where those stones came from. Such a project only took more than an hour, when Jian Mo finished watching Shi Jue Chi... It was all completed. "Tut Tut, many people have great power!" Jane Mo sighed. J''s face was dirty, his hands and body were covered with dirt, and said, "you don''t understand..." Jian Mo glanced at him and just wanted to explain... But j saw Shi Shaoqin come out calmly and stopped talking. In addition to fighting, killing and buying and selling arms, the people here in Mo Palace are refining poison. When did they do such meaningful and non monotonous things? Of course, these people are enthusiastic "It''s almost noon!" Shi Shaoqin''s cold and leisurely words floated in. Jian Mo subconsciously looked at the sun, which had indeed moved to the middle of the sky, "Oh!" "..." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, obviously dissatisfied with Jian Mo''s response. Jian Mo waited for Shi Shaoqin to continue to speak, but when he turned back, he turned and left... His back showed a cold look of pride. With her mouth curled, Jane Mo shrugged bitterly and went to the kitchen. J followed like an asshole, "Hey, what are you going to do at noon?" "Dumplings..." "Dumplings?" "Yes!" Jane Mo answered faintly, "what''s the matter?" J left the corner of his mouth. "I ate it when I was a child... The chefs here don''t seem to do this." "Poor..." Jane Mo looked at J sympathetically, but she also had some faint emotions in her heart. Shi Shaoqin likes to control people''s hearts, but he forgets... His heart is cold and intentional. "What kind of filling would you like?" Jane Mo asked casually. "I can do anything..." J said excitedly. "Anyway, you''re the best!" Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and felt that she couldn''t find happiness talking about Grounding with a genius who was only sensitive to numbers. Jian Mo quickly mixed several fillings and threw the noodles into the dough mixing machine The chef of Chinese cuisine helped roll out the leather, and she personally made... Authentic three-step dumplings, each full and attractive. "Miss Jane," the Chinese chef frowned slightly, "Qin Shao doesn''t seem to like such things very much?" People here know that Shi Shaoqin has high requirements for food... Whether it''s taste or appearance, he has abnormal and perfect requirements. According to what Jane Mo said to Shi juechi: Shi Shaoqin is either abnormal obsessive-compulsive disorder or neurovirgo! "People are used to standing high on the ground and forget the feeling of stepping on the ground..." Jian Mo took another filling and began to pack, "in fact, you never thought that what he lacks is the most ordinary and simple thing in the world?" "..." the cook twitched at the corners of his mouth and didn''t speak. What do they want? In this place, no one dares to go against the scales This Jian Mo, in their view, is also because she is a woman, or a special woman to Qin Shao. Otherwise, I''m afraid I don''t know how many times I''ve died. Jane Mo is not naive and doesn''t think she can change anyone. But whether it''s for Shi Jue chi or Gu Beichen... She always needs to work hard. The lunch table is very simple, with a few dishes and five kinds of dumplings. There are meat dishes and seafood fillings J looked at the dumplings happily and couldn''t help swallowing... However, Shi Shaoqin hasn''t come yet, and he didn''t dare to do it first. But Jane Mo threw one into her mouth and said, "if you want to eat, put it in your mouth..." She said with a sudden sigh, "I miss my childhood." While her mother scolded her to wash her hands, she and Jane Heng secretly twisted one first. Thinking of Jian Heng, Jian Mo felt a faint sense of disappointment... Not thinking about it doesn''t mean he doesn''t exist. Once a good brother, finally because of gambling Jian Mo''s thoughts were suddenly interrupted, and subconsciously looked at Shi Shaoqin who came in, "it''s very noon today..." "Who told me to do this?" Shi Shaoqin''s cold words interrupted Jian Mo''s excitement. She looked at him blankly, "what''s the problem?" Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were cold without a trace of temperature. He looked at the dumplings on the table, and even the uncontrollable smell of bloodthirsty overflowed from his body. Jane Mo subconsciously stepped back and tried to distance herself from him. There was a bang, followed by a clatter of broken porcelain. The original warm and pleasant restaurant became dignified and messy in an instant. Because the voice of "clutching the bones" is too hard. Such a voice, in the already tense restaurant, is filled with an oppressive storm. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo with a cruel look in her eyes. She subconsciously stepped back and didn''t know what had happened? J is also at a loss. He doesn''t dare to breathe. Shi Shaoqin''s hand was white because it was too tight. He turned and walked to Jian Mo step by step Jane Mo instinctively retreated until the wall behind her blocked her momentum of retreating. Morson stood there, looking coldly... Even with a touch of ridicule in the bottom of his eyes. In the tense atmosphere, no one noticed him... Especially the strange smile under the sneer at the corners of other mouths. "You..." "How dare you?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice of gritting his teeth was bloody. Jane Mo''s breathing is rapid and unstable. Her mouth opens again and again, but she doesn''t know what to say Looking at the approaching Shi Shaoqin, Jane Mo''s face was filled with uncontrollable panic, "don''t come here..." However, she didn''t know that her panic and resistance even stimulated Shi Shaoqin, who was nervous at the moment. The original forbearance of anger and frantic blood, at this moment, it''s like being blown up Shi Shaoqin''s face became ferocious. Jian Mo seemed to feel something. Her breathing stopped for a moment. She saw Shi Shaoqin''s fist mixed with the fierce wind flying towards her "Ah --" Chapter 752 "Qin Shao!" J shouted almost at the same time as Jian Mo screamed. Such momentum, such anger... Jane Mo will not be able to bear the blow. Jane Mo instinctively looked at the approaching fist and closed her eyes The bang came again, and everyone''s heart stopped at that moment. Breathing, as if there was only such a sound all the time Jane Mo''s body trembled uncontrollably and had no expected pain. However, the collapse under such tension and fear made her almost collapse. Slowly open your eyes, Jane Mo looked at the arm next to her face, and even felt the speed of the just fierce wind rubbing her cheek. Her lips trembled with fear, and Jane Mo''s eyes were covered with a thin mist. That fear made her unable to control her emotions. The bright red blood slipped slowly on the white wall, wisps by wisps, especially dazzling. Shi Shaoqin''s hand is broken. If such strength really falls on Jian Mo, it can be imagined. "Don''t be conceited..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was as cold as an ice cone. "Mo''er, if you really wear away my bottom line, what if you promised juechi?" He said softly, breathing the breath of death, "even if he Chen had a word in advance... So what?!" Jane Mo''s head is'' buzzing ''. Even if she doesn''t know what happened, she is occupied by fear. Shi Shaoqin''s hand, gently retract Just as he crossed Jian Mo''s cheek, he suddenly slowly opened his fist, slender and glossy finger belly, and gently crossed the corner of Jian Mo''s eyes. Jane Mo''s body trembled and instinctively wanted to avoid. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes gradually became familiar with it. He glanced at the tears on his fingers, and the corners of his beautiful mouth were hooked with a cold smile. The smell of blood gradually filled her nose. Jane Mo only felt a sudden spasm in her stomach "Oh..." Jane foam felt sick and leaned down to retch. Then she felt that her abdomen was also cramped. "Well..." Jane Mo''s forehead was covered with cold sweat, and even she felt a little moisture at the root of her thigh. Suddenly something crossed her mind, and Jane Mo''s face turned white in an instant. She didn''t care about Shi Shaoqin''s anger at the moment. She wasn''t even in the mood to pay attention to why he was angry. She just shouted, "Shi Shaoqin..." There was a trace of dependence in the weak voice. She hasn''t said anything yet. Her body has begun to lean against the wall and slowly rub down "Pain..." Jian Mo''s tears fell uncontrollably because of the fear of worry, "Shi Shaoqin..." Shi Shaoqin''s original anger was slightly raised by Jian Mo, as if his hand for help was frozen. J is a child. I don''t understand what happened. I''m a little confused. Morson just looked coldly and mocked Jian Mo''s self inflicted dumplings. However, when I saw Shi Shaoqin''s fist, in a rage, finally hit the wall, my heart was cold. He looked at Jane Mo, who had been spread on the ground, with a deep fundus of his eyes. "Well..." Jane Mo only felt the pain in her abdomen. It was like something was about to be pulled away from her body. It is possible to lose Xiao Yan''s panic, which instantly filled all her nerves... The desire to grab Shi Shaoqin''s hand for help became more urgent, but powerless. Looking up, Jane Mo''s face was embarrassed by tears. The eyes of prayer are pasted with tears. They are so weak Shi Shaoqin had never seen such a simple foam, as if the world was about to collapse. "Please..." Jian Mo covered his lower abdomen with his other hand, as if only in this way, Xiao Yan would not leave her, "Shao Shi..." Since knowing Shi Shaoqin''s name, Jian Mo has never called him "Shao Shi" again. But at this moment, she begged desperately and forgot this man... Even Shao Shi, he is still the abnormal Shi Shaoqin! J finally realized what might have happened. Just wanted to remind him, he saw Shi Shaoqin suddenly bend over and hold Jian Mo up "Let the doctor go to the mother and baby examination room!" Shi Shaoqin was indifferent to such orders. At the same time, the man had walked out with great strides. "Mother and baby room?!" J couldn''t react and subconsciously looked at Morson. Mosen looked at the back of Shi Shaoqin who left with Jian Mo in his arms. His eyes were dark and bottomless. J was a little strange, but he didn''t think much, "what mother and baby room? When will Mo palace still have this place?" Morson gave j a cold look, then turned and left J was still stunned. "Is there anything else in the Mo palace I don''t know?!" If it was in a mother''s room, J would know However, recently, he has been pestering Jane Mo every day. How can he care about those?! The mother and baby room was specially prepared for Jian Mo by Shi Shaoqin Ask why? Shi Shaoqin will give you a cold look directly, because he doesn''t understand it himself. J didn''t think deeply, but hurried out At the same time, the chef in charge of Chinese food stood at the door of the kitchen, looking at the mess on the ground, and a strange sneer gradually overflowed from the corners of his mouth. The doctor is not a team to treat Shi juechi''s heart, but an authoritative gynecologist and several experienced senior gynecological nurses. Of course, don''t ask shi Shaoqin why he prepared these people When he was preparing the mother and baby room, he prepared it by the way. Originally, Shi Shaoqin''s anger was turned upside down here because Jianmo suddenly had a problem. However, no one seems to care about this problem except Morson "Doctor, is there a problem with my child?" Jane Mo gritted her teeth and endured bursts of colic because she was flustered and even spoke Chinese. Obviously, the doctor doesn''t understand. Jane Mo closed her eyes and tried to calm herself down. She asked again in English, "doctor, my child will be fine, right?" "Check first..." the doctor is experienced after all. "What you need to do most now is to relax. If you are so nervous, the situation will only be worse." Jane Mo closed her eyes again. The nervous tension just now may be the most direct cause of abdominal spasm She took a deep breath and under the guidance of the doctor However, there is no way to curb the inner panic. That''s out of control! After several attempts, the doctor saw that Jian Mo''s blood pressure and other data began to be confused. He was worried and hurried out, "we must stabilize the mood of pregnant women..." Shi Shaoqin looked at the doctor, and his cold sight gradually became deep. "If the pressure of the pregnant woman continues to be so great, the child may suffocate due to uncontrollable..." the doctor frowned. "We must find a way to calm her down!" Chapter 753 Jian Mo is in the monitoring room, constantly taking a deep breath, and then exhaling However, her inner fear and worry were beyond her control at the moment. The nurse also began to worry, and even... Was ready for caesarean section at any time. However, when we saw Jane Mo''s blood pressure and other data, we were sad one by one. In this case, it is likely that only one The atmosphere here is more and more dignified, which makes Jian Mo''s nerves tense, as if she was going to collapse at any time. Outside, the doctor is still waiting for Shi Shaoqin to find a way. Obviously, there is also worry on his face. With such a high salary, she won''t naively think that... There is something wrong with the pregnant woman and child inside, and she can be safe. "She must be emotionally stable!" The doctor stressed again anxiously. Shi Shaoqin looked at the eye doctor with deep eyes. Just when J was worried, he pushed open the door of the supervision room. His eyes fell deeply on Jian Mo, trying to calm down, but he couldn''t calm down, and then a vicious circle, anxious and pale face ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen looked at all the deeds of Luo Songxian in the United States over the years. There was nothing special. It was just that he had a vision for investment and was keen on charity. "The more evil you are, the more you like to cover it up with kindness!" Gu Beichen spoke faintly, but he couldn''t hear his emotion in his voice. "He is the best person to give himself money..." Xiao Nan holds a bottle of unopened red wine in his hand. "Do you still have time to go to the wine market?" Gu Beichen combined the information and looked at Xiao Nan. "That bottle is for Luo Songxian..." "What a waste!" Xiao Nan glanced at the year. "This bottle of wine has a price now, but there is no market." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, "the meeting ceremony should always start with friendship..." Xiao Nan smiled. "Are you really going to go with Lu man?" She put down the wine. "I''m going to dress up and go with you." Gu Beichen glanced at him, got up and started another wine. "I haven''t settled accounts with you about Melbourne." "How does Chen Shao want to calculate?" Xiao Nan''s smile was brilliant and poisonous. "Don''t you think it''s the simplest and most direct for me to do that?" Gu Beichen stopped pouring wine, didn''t speak, and then continued pouring He handed Xiao Nan a cup, "my hand has been stained with blood, but it''s still Jian Heng''s!" In his indifferent voice, he could not hear any emotion, as if he had killed a chicken and a dog. Xiao Nan took the red wine and was silent He raised his hand and took a shallow SIP... The mellow smell at the entrance was slightly astringent, but the aftertaste was full of strength. "Always different!" Xiao Nan said silently, "we are people who make a living in blood. We are different... You," she looked at Gu Beichen. "Different!" "It''s no different," Gu Beichen''s voice was still flat. "What''s different is what we hope to get?" He didn''t regret solving Jian Heng himself... Even if Mo''er knew one day that he did it. Xiao Nan saw something from Gu Beichen''s face and didn''t continue the topic After all, as long as Chen Shao doesn''t say it himself, no one in the world will know... Jian Heng did it. That kind of situation, that kind of environment... Brother Xiao didn''t deal with any trace at all. Xiao Nan sighed, "brother Xiao doesn''t know what''s going on there now..." "I''m afraid it''s not easy to involve the British aristocracy." Gu Beichen opened his mouth faintly and was about to say something. Suddenly his mobile phone vibrated. Picked it up, Gu Beichen looked at the caller ID and frowned slightly "I''ll decorate it first." Xiao Nan put down her cup and got up. No matter who called, she went out. At the moment when Xiao Nan''s door closed, Gu Beichen answered the phone and walked to the window He didn''t speak, but waited quietly. Comparing patience with Shi Shaoqin seems to have become inertia "Ah Chen..." With a gentle sound, Gu Beichen suddenly gathered with eagle eyes, "Mo''er?!" When Jian Mo heard Gu Beichen''s voice, she immediately cried. She even sobbed uncontrollably. There was no way to contain the smell of hesitation and fear. What she doesn''t want, what she doesn''t want him to worry about But what should I do? She miss him, miss him around... She miss him! "Mo''er, what''s the matter, huh?" Gu Beichen seemed to feel something, but he didn''t overflow his worry, "do you miss me?" "Hmm..." Jian Mo choked and looked at the medical staff standing beside him and Shi Shaoqin, and said, "I just suddenly miss you... Then... Then..." Then what, Jane Mo doesn''t know how to say. Because even if she finds out the reason herself, she knows that Gu Beichen won''t believe it at all "How dare you let Shaoqin call you?" Gu Beichen said with a smile, "how did you do it?" "I..." Jane Mo chuckled her lips, inexplicably. Her sadness was not so sad, even a little rusty. "He also brought me soil. I''m going to plant the sunflower seeds you gave me!" "Oh?" Gu Beichen said with a smile, "aren''t you going to plant it at the gate of the ancient castle of the Mo palace?" In the light voice, there was the charm of magnetism, as if it was clear to the chest. "How do you know?" Jane Mo asked immediately, forgetting to cry. "My Mo''er is sometimes so naughty," Gu Beichen''s voice gently spilled over his thin lips. "I''m not happy. I always want to find some balance." Jane Mo immediately burst into tears and smiled, "where do I have?" "Well, you didn''t..." Gu Beichen answered along with her words, "that''s to change people''s mood occasionally." Jian Mo chatted with Gu Beichen. The nurse looked at the data on the instrument and nodded to the doctor. They can''t understand Chinese. They just think that the phone... Must be someone who is very important to Jane mo. However, I can''t help wondering again Normally, shouldn''t Shi Shaoqin be able to appease her?! These people didn''t understand and didn''t disturb Jian Mo and Gu Beichen... The tense mood that couldn''t be relieved at that time had calmed down. "Soon, I''ll pick you up..." Gu Beichen said softly. "Xiao Yan and I will wait for you safely!" Jane Mo''s nose muttered. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slowly, "my Mo''er is so strong, I believe... You can!" "Yes!" Jane Mo answered with a smile. "I have a few words with Shaoqin," Gu Beichen said faintly, "give him your cell phone, huh?" "Yes!" Jane answered, but she didn''t give up. Gu Beichen seemed to feel that the mobile phone was still in Jian Mo''s hand. There was a touch of forbearing sadness at the bottom of his eyes, but the corners of his mouth were filled with a smile and said low and magnetic, "I love you... Please try to face the sun for me!" Chapter 754 "I will..." Jane Mo''s eyes are filled with a thin mist, but this time it''s not sad, but strong, "you too..." she sniffed and said with a smile, "I love you too!" Soft words, with honeyed tenderness All the tension of Jane Mo disappeared at this moment. Is there such a person in your life He is your whole sky. As long as he is there, you are not afraid of no shelter from the wind and rain, no warm embrace... What''s more, the road ahead is at a loss. Shi Shaoqin took the mobile phone handed by Jian Mo, gave her a cold look and turned out of the examination room. "What did you do to Mo''er?" Gu Beichen''s voice suddenly became cold, without the soft magnetism when talking to Jian Mo just now. Shi Shaoqin sneered, "what do you think?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, "Shi Shaoqin, can you only be so naive now?" "Isn''t it good for people to be silly sometimes?" Shi Shaoqin slightly picked his eyebrows and said, "you don''t always know that I''m... I can''t see others comfortable. Once I''m too comfortable, I''m not comfortable!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes have narrowed into a gap, "is there something wrong with Mo''er''s body?" Shi Shaoqin smiled, sneering Even if it''s thousands of miles away and radio waves... Gu Beichen can feel the treachery under the cold. "It''s not her, it''s the child in her stomach..." Shi Shaoqin said quietly, with a faint smile in his voice. The eagle''s eyes opened in an instant, and two cold lights shone from the depths of the ink pupil, "isn''t it?" "Otherwise?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, "you know, I like looking at people''s desperate eyes best..." The anger in Gu Beichen''s body still expanded in an instant, but there was no overflow. "Seeing Mo''er''s despair, call me in order to stabilize her mood... Shaoqin, when did you like to do such a superfluous thing?" "You''re wrong..." Shi Shaoqin looked at the rolling waves outside and said coldly, "what the cat likes most about the mouse is to catch it and let it go... Then catch it when the mouse thinks it can escape..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is already cloudy. "Of course I want to keep this child..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice gradually filled with blood thirsty breath. "It can not only control you, but also make Jian Mo feel scruples, isn''t it very good?" Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face gradually shrouded in haze, but in a flash, it gradually disappeared. "Shaoqin, Mo''er is mine..." Gu Beichen suddenly said, completely deviating from the topic just now. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, "so what?" Smart people don''t need too many words to hear the fundamental problem from each other''s words It is also better to know what the other party is talking about in the sudden words. The atmosphere suddenly became tense. Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin are clearly separated by the wireless wave, but it seems that each other is in front of each other "Look at each other" and become sharp. No one meant to step back. Even, Ling ran overflowed from his body. "Don''t think of anything..." Gu Beichen warned again, "this is the only warning I give you as a ''friend'' The words fell. Before Shi Shaoqin could speak, Gu Beichen had already cut off the call... His hand dropped slowly. The sound of "quack" suddenly came, and then I heard the sound of "click" There was a crack on the screen of the mobile phone, and the feeling of wet hands came. Blood... A winding thread, like an insect, slowly trickled down the floor along the palm. What he is most worried about may have happened Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes projected outside, as if to shoot through everything. Shi Shaoqin''s temperament he knows too well If Mo''er angered him and affected Xiao Yan, Shi Shaoqin would take charge, but he would never call him. Gu Beichen slowly closed his eyes and let the blood in his palm condense drop by drop, and then drop to the ground "Er..." Gu Beichen suddenly roared and heard a bang. The mobile phone slammed into the wall. Finally, it bounced to the ground. He gasped slightly, and the eagle''s eyes condensed into a piece. Shi Shaoqin has a different idea for Mo''er, which is good for Mo''er''s safety However, he was afraid that everything was out of control. After the dust settled, everything returned to the origin ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window after Gu Beichen hung up the phone. No one knows what he is thinking or waiting for Jane Mo''s examination results. His eyes were cold and deep looking at the front... In his mind, it was Gu Beichen''s statement that "Jianmo is his"! There was something in his heart that was resisting. Shi Shaoqin didn''t even know whether to resist Gu Beichen''s words or to think about some facts hidden by Gu Beichen. He knew that Chen was going to cut off something in the bud But don''t you think this sprout is ridiculous?! Shi Shaoqin turned and stepped to the stairs "Are you curious about the results?" asked chin Shi Shaoqin ignored J and went downstairs without a trace of hesitation. Mosen looked at the figure hidden in the bottom of his eyes, glanced at J lightly, and then followed Shi Shaoqin J tilted his mouth, leaned against the wall and waited. He didn''t know what the change was for? "Qin Shao seems to hate dumplings..." J thought for a long time before he came to this conclusion, and then he was a little annoyed. "I knew it was the same as Jane mo. I''d eat one first... Hey, now it''s good, I don''t have to eat." As time went by, Jane Mo calmed down and everything went well. "Child..." "Although there were some fluctuations just now, it''s good to stabilize it." The doctor said with a smile, "however, you still need to control your emotions. If you are too nervous, the baby palace will be squeezed and contracted." Jane nodded. She didn''t know After all, it happened once last time in Los Angeles. At that time, when Shi Shaoqin punched her, she couldn''t control her tension. It was fear from her physical instinct. Jane Mo got out of the examination bed and gently stroked her swollen stomach. She was completely guilty of Xiao Yan. "Jane Mo, are you okay?" J saw Jane foam coming out and hurried forward to ask. Jane Mo looked around and saw only J. she shook her head with a sigh of relief. "Qin Shao, they''re gone..." J looked at Jian Mo, who was still pale, and muttered, "I''m scared to death... I haven''t seen Qin Shao lose such a temper." Jane was silent. "He always kills people invisibly..." J''s voice was deliberately lowered. Jane Mo looked at him and said indifferently, "I don''t want to mention him..." Just then, Jian Moyu caught a glimpse of a figure. She subconsciously looked... And looked at Shi Shaoqin coldly. Chapter 755 J looked over with Jian Mo''s eyes. When he saw Shi Shaoqin standing there, he subconsciously widened his eyes. The corridor was filled with strange smell. Gradually, the air became thin Jian Mo didn''t move, nor did he move his eyes when he looked at Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin stood where he was. When he saw Jian Mo, he didn''t even know why he came However, when I heard her words, my unclear thoughts suddenly became indifferent. They didn''t know how long the "confrontation" lasted. When Jian Mo was tired, she took back her sight calmly. "I''m back in my room..." Jane Mo opened her mouth gently, but she didn''t know who it was for. She turned calmly and walked to the elevator Open, go in, close the elevator door... Everything is calm and the air solidifies. When the elevator started, J reacted, looked over there, looked at Shi Shaoqin, and swallowed involuntarily. "That..." J raised his hand and put it down, a little embarrassed. "Jane Mo said it was all right!" Shi Shaoqin gave j a cold look and didn''t speak. He turned and went up the stairs again. There was no light in the dark study. The heavy curtains block the hot sunshine outside and the two worlds. Mosen stood not far away. Xu was used to such a dark environment. He saw Shi Shaoqin standing in front of the window Even, you can see the smell on him. "Chen, what are you worried about?" Shi Shaoqin suddenly opened his mouth. Mosen lowered his eyes, "Qin Shao means..." "People will lose their calmness only when they are concerned and worried." Shi Shaoqin''s voice echoed softly in the dark environment, "the better I am for Jian Mo, he won''t rest assured, but will only be more worried." Mosen raised his eyes and looked at Shi Shaoqin. There was an obvious surprise in the bottom of his eyes. "Did Qin Shao call Gu Beichen on purpose?" Shi Shaoqin slightly smiled at the corners of his mouth and tore open the heavy curtains in time The sun, so unscrupulous spilled in, showing the irresistible under the arrogance. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes just narrowed slightly. He didn''t know whether it was caused by his mind or the dazzling sunshine. Morsen subconsciously looked out of the window. Qin Shao was standing in the right position of the main gate of the ancient castle... He should be able to see the new soil paved in the morning. There was a trace of confusion at the bottom of my eyes, even... Thinking under doubt. Qin Shao''s behavior towards Jian Mo these days... Is it just that Gu Beichen misunderstood something? ¡­¡­ On weekends, the weather in San Francisco is exceptionally good. In all kinds of media, it is the equestrian race held by Luo Songxian in the private Racecourse today. Luo Songxian is an oriental, but in the west, especially in the United States, which has a deep impact on the world economy, he is mixed with wind and water. It is closely related to his investment and unique vision in recent years. However, that is just the idea of ordinary people. It is obviously not easy for a person to reach Luo Songxian''s current assets in the short term from the original funds to the later accumulation. Gu Beichen is dressed in a white dark shirt, a black narrow suit and a tie of the same color... His casual dress shows his natural momentum. He flipped through the magazine and waited After about half an hour, Gu Beichen looked up calmly. Lu man is wearing a black patch tight dress and a heart-shaped chest wrapping design, revealing her proud gullies. With white skin and beautiful diamond, the pendant is just above the gully, which makes people feel a little daydream A large curly hair like seaweed is decorated with a diamond hairpin on one side... It is simple and generous, and it hides a bit of charm. That kind of faint feeling, most men can''t resist Lu man is very beautiful. Her beauty is that she knows how to show her best. It''s a pity... The entertainment industry has stayed for a long time. The dust on the body can''t be covered up by gorgeous dresses. "Is it OK?" Lu man asked with charming eyes. Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a faint radian, and he didn''t mean to praise, "good-looking!" Lu man smiled, slightly lifted his skirt and walked forward. At the same time, he deliberately asked, "I look good, or Jane Mo?" "Jane Mo!" Gu Beichen''s eyes softened when he shouted the name without thinking. Put down the magazine and get up. Lu man has come to him "It''s not a gentleman''s behavior to praise another woman in front of another woman." Lu man''s eyes are full of emotion, but her face is still a smile under the joke. Gu Beichen said calmly, "her beauty in my eyes is not her appearance, but as long as it is her... It is beautiful to me." Lu man has never seen such a serious Gu Beichen. Such a man overflows with a smell that makes women crazy. Just, such a man will never belong to her All the way to Luo Songxian''s private racecourse. Many media have been gathered outside, and even some charities have arrived. Whether emperor is the top 100 group in the world, the emergence of Gu Beichen or Lu man, who is better mixed in Hollywood, naturally caused the agitation of the media. However, Gu Beichen was used to such an occasion. His cold and carved face didn''t overflow half an expression. From beginning to end, he was so indifferent. Lu man is a public figure with an appropriate smile on her face They entered the banquet hall of the racecourse under the flash of the crowd. "Lord Luo," Wang Qicheng went to Luo Songxian, "Gu Beichen and Lu man have arrived." Luo Songxian''s eyes were deep, and then he recovered his calm. After greeting several chatting people around him, he walked to the door. Gu Beichen looked at Luo Songxian, who was wearing an improved Tang suit, coming across the other side. In the depths of his ink pupil, he brushed a touch of lingran, but he never spilled a penny. Lu man''s hand holding the bag obviously clenched because of tension, but soon calmed her mind. "I heard that Chen Shao came to San Francisco before and never had a chance to see..." Luo Songxian smiled and stretched out his hand, "nice to meet you!" "Lord Luo is polite..." Gu Beichen shook hands with Luo Songxian calmly. "I''m a younger generation. I should come to see you first." With that, he handed Luo Songxian the red wine prepared in advance. "It''s really polite..." Luo Songxian smiled with a needle hidden in his smile, showing the hypocrisy of old cunning. "People are old and have no hobbies... They prefer tea ceremony and red wine." "Lord Luo likes it..." Gu Beichen smiled faintly at the corners of his mouth, but he was frozen there, not reaching the bottom of his eyes. Whether Gu Beichen or Luo Songxian, they all know that they are not strangers to each other Of course, this is no stranger, not a shopping mall, but a Shi Shaoqin! Chapter 756 There are many people participating in equestrian events. In foreign countries, such activities beneficial to physical and mental health are still widely loved by everyone. What''s more, the purpose is charity. It''s the best time for rich families, stars and dignitaries to expose their charitable deeds. "Are you going to enter a game?" Luo Songxian accompanied Gu Beichen to look at the stable and asked, "are there any horses in the picture?" "Lord Luo is a villa today," Gu Beichen said plainly. "I''ll go in. If I accidentally win, it''s not good!" Luo Songxian burst out laughing. "I like a fearless young man like you..." Luo Songxian seemed to have great emotion. "It''s really like when I was young!" Gu Beichen smiled but said nothing. Looking at the bottom of the horse''s eyes, it was cold. It''s similar to him. ha-ha! He can''t do so many abnormal and distorted things "Is it selected?" After looking around, Luo Songxian motioned Gu Beichen to sit under the umbrella in front. "The 15th looks good." Gu Beichen answered lightly. Luo Songxian looked at Gu Beichen admiringly, "it seems... Chen Shao also has a lot of research on equestrian?!" "I''ve been in England for a while, doing nothing..." Gu Beichen said quietly, "I''ve touched everything for a while." Equestrian is very popular in the British aristocratic circle. Gu Beichen thinks Luo Songxian won''t know about that past. They chatted and knew the past, but no one mentioned it. What he talked about was nothing more than some things in the shopping mall. However, Gu Beichen didn''t leak anything in his speech and didn''t give Luo Songxian a chance to benefit at all. Gu Beichen doesn''t like being with jackals "The boy''s mind is too careful..." Luo Songxian looked at Gu Beichen, who was called away by Lu man. He smiled with Yin and evil in the corners of his mouth. His eyes were even more awe inspiring, "it''s hard to do?!" Wang Qicheng sniffed coldly, "for so many years, Shi Shaoqin has no choice but to take care of master Luo. Gu Beichen... Hehe, what can be done?" "Don''t look down on anyone at any time." Luo Songxian looked at Wang Qicheng. "It''s possible that he is the one who bit you last and killed you." "Yes!" Wang Qicheng bowed slightly and answered. Luo Songxian''s eyes fell on Gu Beichen''s back again. His eyes were sharp light precipitated by the years. "Shi Shaoqin took Gu Beichen''s lifeline for the sake of simple foam... Gu Beichen will not give up so easily this time." "Lord Luo," asked Wang Qicheng, "why don''t we get Jian Mo?" Luo Songxian smiled. "I just want to see how high that little thing can fly with its hard wings!" Wang Qicheng glanced at Luo Songxian and asked, "do you want to inform the people over there?" "No need..." Luo Songxian opened his mouth quietly, and his smile was even more gloomy. People in important places must give the deadliest blow at the most important moment If you want to get out of the darkness, hehe, it''s not easy?! ¡­¡­ The first equestrian race will be held at 11 a.m. after watching the horses, the participants are already betting. In the waiting space, it is naturally the best time for celebrities and rich people to enhance their "feelings". "Isn''t this Lu man?" Suddenly, a frivolous voice came, "tut Tut, how long haven''t you been looking for you? Have you changed men again?" Lu man frowned and looked at where the voice came from I saw a man in a white suit, a big flowered shirt and some strange clothes coming over with a flowing pace. "Yo, who is this?" The man''s tone was even more sarcastic, "it looks good. How can you like your bus?" "Lu Yinping, keep your mouth clean!" Lu man clenched her handbag and said angrily. Lu Yinping looked at Gu Beichen more recklessly and said with a smile: "Hey, don''t be fooled by this woman''s coquettish appearance... Look back, you don''t know how you were dragged into the water." Gu beichenjun didn''t have half an expression on his face, but said indifferently, "don''t you think it''s impolite to say so about a woman in public?" "Impolite?" Lu Yinping was not angry with Gu Beichen''s attitude, "I''m doing good every day... I''m afraid you''ll be fooled!" He smiled and looked at Lu man, "this is a poisonous rose in bed..." Then he didn''t stay any longer. He just smiled deeply and turned to say hello to others. "Sorry, I''m a little tired. Go and have a rest first!" Lu man tried to pull the corners of her mouth and said. "I''ll accompany you..." Gu Beichen said faintly. He didn''t feel half emotional because of Lu Yinping''s words. Lu man nodded and went to the rest area with Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen gave her a glass of juice. From beginning to end, he was very gentleman. "I''m sorry..." Lu man held the juice, and the fundus of his eyes was obviously a little wet. Gu Beichen looked at her with deep eyes, "don''t say sorry to me." Everyone has their own rules of survival... Especially in the entertainment industry. He doesn''t do entertainment. To a large extent, he hates that there is no bottom line under such hidden rules. Lu man''s nose was sour for a moment. When his head was slightly tilted, tears had filled his eyes... It seemed that he could not control it at any time. Gu Beichen didn''t comfort him. He didn''t even say anything. "Can I borrow your shoulder..." Lu man''s voice has choked, which is the most vulnerable helplessness of women. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deep and didn''t say anything. He just gently held Lu man in his arms There is nothing wrong with Gu Beichen''s actions on such occasions, even in the bad environment abroad. However, in the eyes of those who have a heart, it is obviously different. Lu man choked at the moment he was hugged by Gu Beichen, and his body trembled Fortunately, the back of the chairs in the rest area are very high, so they are not completely exposed to everyone''s vision. The banquet hall was still full of people. After a while, Lu man gradually regained his calm and slowly lifted up, "thank you." "At least once a friend..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth calmly, and Lu man could not detect the hidden meaning in his calm words. Lu Manzhe said, "Lu Yinping and I are not what you think... He is just an investor in my film." "You don''t need to explain anything to me?" Gu Beichen''s voice was always calm. "What people do for their purpose, as long as the advantages are in your eyes, greater than the disadvantages... It''s good!" Lu man pulled the corners of her mouth, but her face was still sad. "The equestrian race will start soon. Go and fix it..." Gu Beichen suggested. Lu man nodded, slightly wiped the tears on his face, and then got up and went to the bathroom. Gu Beichen looked at her back, and the eagle''s eyes gradually became familiar... Until they couldn''t see to the end. The "buzzing" mobile phone vibrated slightly. Gu Beichen calmly looked back and took out his mobile phone... Opened the text message. Jay: isn''t Daddy with Mommy? Gu Beichen: why do you ask? Xiao Jie directly dumped a picture of the equestrian race report: Daddy, this is cheating on mommy?! Chapter 757 Gu Beichen reluctantly hooked the corner of his mouth, moved his slender fingers gently, and a text message replied to the past: at this time, it should be time for you to sleep! Jay: don''t digress! At the end, Jane Jie added an angry expression. Gu Beichen''s smile at the corners of his mouth immediately spread: I''m so aboveboard, it''s not appropriate for you to use "cheating". Jane Jie skimmed his mouth: you''re still avoiding my problems. Don''t fool me! Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes also smiled: according to your character, such a thing happens... Generally, I will call after confirming whether I have time! Jian Jie looked at Xiao Jing, who was making a snowdrift in front of him, and replied with an eyebrow: Uncle Xiao Jing said that you have a little quirky recently and like to send text messages. "..." Gu Beichen saw it, and suddenly the eagle''s eyes narrowed, and the bottom of his eyes flashed a dangerous smell. "Young master Jie, hurry up. It''s almost done..." Xiao Jing panted and pointed to the snow pile he had piled up. He was angry. He didn''t know at all. Jian Jie betrayed him. "Well, good!" While Jian Jie answered, Gu Beichen''s text message came in. Dad: I''m afraid it''s hard to adjust him. Jane Jie sometimes feels that there are many things between adults, and it is difficult to think of a set of words... No matter what they say or answer, they are watertight. Daddy: I heard it snowed in Los Angeles? Xiao Jie: Yes, it''s so big... I had dinner with Uncle Xiao Jing in the evening. Now I''m making a snowman in the villa yard. Grandma Luo said that uncle Xiao Jing was under too much pressure from the news about the emperor in Los Angeles these two days. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, and he replied to the past: will he go to Su''s house tomorrow? Jay: Well, I''m going to rehearse the music. Daddy: play for a while and rest early Jay: you haven''t told me about that star! Want to bolt through? Don''t even think about it Gu Beichen''s smile deepened a little: the appropriate emergence of a little crisis is a means to enhance each other''s feelings... There has been a very excellent man around your mommy recently. Daddy must think of countermeasures. At the sight of Jian Jie, he immediately curled his lips: Mommy''s provocative attribute can''t be changed with Xiao Yan?! It seems that I can only wish you good luck! Gu Beichen smiled and didn''t reply again. After receiving his mobile phone, he fell in front of him with a deep vision Deal with Shi Shaoqin and leave everything to Xiao Jing... That''s because Xiao Jing knows him! Whether it''s business or private. It seems that... Things have been solved and he needs a long holiday. Gu Beichen thought like this, but he didn''t find out until that day... It''s better to leave the long holiday for himself. It''s a bit wasteful for Xiao Jing. Call it: a single Wang, what holiday do you want?! ¡­¡­ In the clean and bright bathroom, there is luxury. Lu man is mending her makeup, and the door of the bathroom is pushed open in time She didn''t care and continued to cover up the floating blue at the bottom of her eyes until... A man was reflected in the mirror. Lu man was suddenly surprised, and the powder puff in his hand also slipped from his hand. Almost at the same time, the man turned and looked at the man. "It''s an actor in the end..." Lu Yinping said softly. "I''m distressed to see the appearance of pear flowers with rain... Let alone Gu Beichen!" Lu man''s hand was propped on the glass platform, his mouth looked at him tightly, and his breathing became heavy. The body is instinctively nervous, with fear under resistance. Lu man subconsciously wants to hide. Unfortunately, it''s a luxury to move. "I don''t think Gu Beichen can be seduced by you." Lu Yinping lowered his eyes, looked at his fingers and said, "does Lord Luo like you too much?" Lu man''s breathing became thicker and heavier. Every time, his chest rose and fell "Woman..." Lu Yinping came forward and glanced at the undulating ravines because she was angry. "If you can''t let men move here, even if you lie flat, I''m afraid it''s difficult!" Lu man closed her eyes. "Gu Beichen is not an easy person to move..." she opened her eyes, gritted her teeth and said, "besides, it''s impossible for you to start from this aspect." She tried to calm herself, even if it was useless! "Useful useless..." Lu Yinping spilled a smile on his lips, but his eyes were fierce. He suddenly grabbed the chin of his vine and lifted it. "That has the final say." "Ah!" Lu man couldn''t help screaming because of the severe pain Lu Yinping threw Lu man away. Because she moved too much, she saw her tears overflowing from the burning pain. Lu Yinping gave her a cold look, went to the washing table to wash his hands, and said indifferently: "Gu mohuai''s shares were almost... Got them." His voice was extremely slow. "Unexpectedly, it was a poor move in the end!" Lu man clenched her teeth tightly and protected the place where she had just been pinched. The tingling there touched her nerves. Lu Yinping pulled the toilet paper and wiped it slowly. At the same time, he said coldly: "sometimes it''s really strange... You say... I let someone do hands and feet on Gu Beichen''s car. Under such an explosion, he can still live?" Lu man didn''t speak, just clenched her lips. "Hey, now think..." Lu Yinping picked up his eyebrows and smiled. "Instead of killing Gu Beichen, it''s better to make him unable to turn over." He glanced at Lu man. "You said... Empty the emperor and then get all the shares in his hand. How about it?" The dangerous breath pours on Lu man with ambiguity, and she subconsciously hides to the side. "Do you think..." Lu Yinping slowly approached Jian Mo, "I can''t do it?" "No..." Lu man''s voice began to tremble. "I''ve been here for a long time. If I don''t go out again, I''m afraid Chen Shao will be suspicious." Lu Yinping smiled with a strange smile. "Don''t worry, I won''t treat you like this... I can''t eat a woman who''s rotten." Lu man''s hand gradually clenched. She wanted to resist, but she didn''t have the courage. Lu Yinping got up slowly and looked at Lu man''s frightened look. "Tut tut" made a sound before he said: "right... In this way, I still feel pity and can make men move." Then he smiled coldly, opened the door of the bathroom and walked out calmly Lu man''s body seemed to be evacuated and leaned against the washing table with a pale face. When Lu man came out, Gu Beichen was talking to several people. He saw that she came over and said hello to the people around her. "You don''t look very well?" Gu Beichen said calmly, "I''ll take you back to rest first..." "No!" Lu man opened his mouth almost without thinking. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and his eyes were full of doubts. Lu man has been rolling and crawling in the entertainment industry for a long time, but in an instant, he has recovered his calm, "you''ve bet, I don''t want to spoil the fun..." Seeing Gu Beichen still looking at her in doubt, Lu man pulled the corners of his mouth: "I''m really okay..." Chapter 758 Gu Beichen didn''t say anything when he saw Lu man insist. No matter who participated in the equestrian race or not, they have begun to move to the racecourse The riders have pulled out their horses and have gone to the starting line to prepare. Equestrian, sometimes not just horses, is largely related to riders. "Which one did you choose?" Lu man looked at the horses on the starting line, one by one with shiny hair and fat flesh. ¡°15¡£¡± Gu Beichen answered indifferently. Lu man suddenly looks at Gu Beichen and seems surprised that he chose this number "I heard..." Gu Beichen didn''t look at Lu man, but his eyes fell on the No. 15 horse and rider, "... 15 is Lord Luo''s lucky number." "How do you know?" Lu man asked reflexively. However, when the words were spoken, I felt too eager. Gu Beichen looked at her and saw Lu man pull the corners of his mouth. He said awkwardly, "you don''t even deal with Lord Luo, so... You know his lucky numbers. I... I''m a little curious." Gu Beichen calmly took back his sight, "to cooperate with such people, the basic information is to understand." "Yes, yes..." Lu man pulled at the corners of his mouth. She looked at Gu Beichen. His eyes were always on the starting line Lu man breathed a sigh, thinking that Gu Beichen didn''t notice her. "Ready..." On the radio, at 11 o''clock, there was a sound on time. Then, the signal gun "banged" across, and the riders already controlled the horse, like an arrow off the string... "Whoosh" ran out. The people in the stands have begun to boil. From the beginning, the disparity opened, which makes people more nervous. Gu Beichen looked at it indifferently. He didn''t care about the result at all. The roaring hoofs were particularly noisy in the shouting. The disparity that had begun to open was gradually... Bite each other very tightly under the later control of the riders. A total of ten laps, which is not only the control of the horse''s foot strength, but also the test of the rider''s control ability Everyone''s eyes are attracted by the horses on the field, and everyone wants to win their bets. It''s not about money, it''s all about face. There are waiters walking around with drinks, but at the moment, no one is in the mood to drink Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes crossed faintly, and his sight finally matched with a waiter in the distance. The waiter nodded his head towards him, and then looked back. Everything seemed to be an illusion. After ten laps, the horse won on the 15th. After all, No. 15 is not the strongest horse... Even at the beginning. "Win..." Lu man was obviously very happy, and the excitement in her eyes swept away the sadness just now. Gu Beichen''s thin lips hung a smile like nothing, and saw Luo Songxian come over, "I won everything, I won''t take a penny, and I''ll invest it all in this charity fund." "Then I would like to thank the center for AIDS prevention." Luo Songxian said with a smile around his mouth. "Lord Luo''s field is naturally to be held." Gu Beichen said calmly, "I''ll be the host tomorrow night. I don''t know if Lord Luo will appreciate it?" "Nature..." Luo Songxian said with a smile. "Chen Shao is willing to be close. I can''t wait for it." Gu Beichen smiled and shook Luo Songxian''s hand. Just then he said, "then I won''t bother Lord Luo today. See you tomorrow!" "OK, see you tomorrow!" Luo Songxian answered. When he looked at Lu man, his sight crossed a deep meaning. Lu Manzhe nodded to Luo Songxian with a smile and left with Gu Beichen "Lord Luo, I started when I was running a horse." After Gu Beichen left, Wang Qicheng said, "the action is very fast and skilled, like the skill of the Taoist priest." "Is it Shi Shaoqin''s man?" "It doesn''t look like..." Wang Qicheng replied. Luo Songxian glanced at Wang Qicheng lightly. "Didn''t he say... The man of the Dragon owl is in San Francisco?" "Xiao Nan, the boss of the five siblings of the Xiao family!" Luo Songxian smiled, "since he can''t wait, give him sweets..." "Yes!" ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen took landing man directly back to the hotel without even asking her for advice. "Chen Shao..." Lu man shouted suspiciously. "You''re staying here tonight." Gu Beichen said indifferently, "as for what you want to say when you go out tomorrow, it''s your business." Lu man frowned, but a joking smile hung on his face. "Chen Shao is not afraid of the media scribbling?" Gu Beichen looked at Lu man with deep eyes, and scratched his thin lips with a faint smile, "since I dare to keep you, what do you think?" There was a dangerous smell in the light voice. Lu man choked in her heart and pulled at the corners of her mouth. "Lu man, you are a smart man..." Gu Beichen calmly took back his sight. "Smart man, do smart things." Then Gu Beichen looked at Lu man again and left the guest room. Instead of going anywhere else, he went to the opposite room. When Gu Beichen went in, Xiao Nan had just returned. "The old fox should take the bait..." Xiao Nan said bluntly, "the wind has been released. I guess it''s bait." "It must be sweet." Gu Beichen said indifferently, "how much he gives and how much he takes." "Not afraid of being bored to death..." Xiao Nan said with a smile. I can''t guess that Luo songchen''s eyes have been cold for a long time Now, Fang Mo''er is beside Shi Shaoqin. He is afraid that... He can take him out of the dark sun and be greedy by Shi Shaoqin! ¡­¡­ With the help of J, Jian Mo planted sunflower seeds. As for seeds, both of them are green hands... Fortunately, sunflower seeds are tolerant things. Even if they can''t survive, most of them should have no problem. "All of a sudden, I''m looking forward to it. Everyone can survive..." J ''hey hey'' smiled, his face full of vitality. Jian Mo looked at the soil and put her hand on her abdomen. She thought to herself: Xiao Yan, mom, I hope you will stay in the dark for the rest of your life, just like these sunflowers... You can get the sun every day. ¡­¡­ Night has just fallen in San Francisco. In the city full of enthusiasm, all kinds of recent news are discussed everywhere. Luo Songxian walked with his hands on his back in the garden of the manor, with a peaceful smile on his face. "Lord Luo, phone..." Wang Qicheng handed Luo Songxian his mobile phone. Luo Songxian took it. After making a sound, he listened to the other party saying At the end, he obviously smiled at the corners of his mouth, "the memory of childhood is still very clear!" He slowly lowered his hand and pressed down the phone at the same time. "Qicheng..." Luo Songxian shouted. "Lord Luo!" "Jian Mo made dumplings for Shaoqin..." Luo Songxian looked back at the respectful Wang Qicheng and smiled. "Do you remember the dumplings?" Chapter 759 Wang Qicheng looked at Luo Songxian, then lowered his eyes and slightly recalled, "remember!" Luo Songxian seemed to be in a good mood at once. It was an unspeakable lump feeling, as if... Stimulating his nerves and making him excited. "The news from the Mo palace is slow... It''s been three days." Luo Songxian sighed, but it was obvious that the joy of his body could not be concealed in his voice. Wang Qicheng smiled. "There are so many people in the Mo palace, and there is no contact in every corner... It''s a little hard to send messages." "In this life, Shi Shaoqin is the most favored son around me..." Luo Songxian did not avoid avoiding in front of Wang Qicheng, "tut Tut, when I was a child, I was as good as a little girl." Wang Qicheng was silent, but a faint smile was put on the corner of his mouth. "That dumpling... Is the most delicious I''ve ever eaten in my life!" Luo Songxian seems to remember the taste up to now, "smooth and delicate skin with slippery dumplings... If you want to eat it, the skills must be in place, otherwise you have to lose it." When Wang Qicheng saw Luo Songxian stop, he also stopped, "Lord Luo, do you need to arrange it again?" "Hey..." Luo Songxian''s face was melancholy, but his eyes were greedy for his memory. "No arrangement... Arrangement, it''s not Shaoqin, and it can''t bring me such joy." "Yes!" Wang Qicheng answered, followed Luo Songxian''s steps again and continued to walk forward. Just, in my mind, I always flashed the original scene "If you want Shi Jue chi to live, do as I mean!" Luo Songxian sat on the wide sofa and said lazily with Yin and evil, "I''m happy, so he will suffer less torture." Shi Shaoqin stared at his stubborn eyes, but his body trembled uncontrollably. Beside him, there are several children who have been beaten to pieces and are not much different from his grade... The dazzling whip marks on their bodies are shocking. "You, what do you want to do..." Shi Shaoqin asked, gnashing his teeth, with a little beast who was holding back his anger. "Make yourself like them first..." Luo Songxian opened his mouth faintly, and there was an obvious bath look under greed in his eyes. That kind of bathing look is abnormal and distorted! Shi Shaoqin clenched his small hand. He stubbornly didn''t move. "Take the stone Jue..." "Good!" Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth almost at the same time. When he exposed himself to the air, he trembled but showed stubbornness under forbearance. Even though he is still young, he already knows how to be shy. The light... Hit him gently. The delicate skin looks like a boiled egg with its shell peeled. It is tender and shiny "It''s really top grade!" Luo Songxian''s eyes radiated a shocking light. That kind of light is like trying to swallow Shi Shaoqin alive His body is out of control, and the cells of his body are showing their excitement. Just looking at it like this can last for a long time. "Take all these down..." Luo Songxian couldn''t help ordering. After a while, except Shi Shaoqin, all the children curled up on the ground were taken away Shi Shaoqin even felt that when the children were taken away, there was relaxation and sympathy for him in his eyes. "Hungry?" Luo Songxian looked at Shi Shaoqin''s stubborn but forbearing eyes and liked it very much, "do you want to eat?" Shi Shaoqin''s mouth was tight and didn''t answer at all. Even with his present posture, he didn''t lower his head proudly "I just like your stubborn appearance, which is much more attractive than them..." Luo Songxian''s voice was ambiguous. "Those only know that they are afraid and boring!" Shi Shaoqin was more and more angry. "Qicheng, go and bring in the dumplings..." Luo Songxian''s voice has been unable to hide his arrogance and greedy light. Shi Shaoqin wouldn''t naively think that Luo Songxian would give him food, but he didn''t know how evil the next thing happened. The moment the hot dumplings touch the skin, they instantly turn red. Luo Songxian chased the dumplings with a ferocious smile and ordered Shi Shaoqin not to get the dumplings to the ground. If it falls to the ground, he must eat it. If not... Naturally, Luo Songxian ate it. All the abnormal behaviors under humiliation only made Shi Shaoqin feel vicious... And what he didn''t think of The door, I don''t know when it was opened, a figure watched in horror. Watching his skin scalded by dumplings, watching Luo Songxian greedily eating dumplings... Even watching him have to eat the dumplings that fell on the ground! "Uh... Uh... Woo woo..." Shi juechi''s mouth was sealed. He stared and tears kept pouring out. He couldn''t imagine what he saw at the moment... He couldn''t stand it. Shaoqin looked at it with desperate and collapsed eyes. "Wuwu..." The voice of sobbing could not be heard. He wanted to break away from Wang Qicheng. He wanted to save Shaoqin, but... He had no way. The heart is so uncomfortable... Contracting sharply. It''s like being severely strangled by someone with a rope. It''s so uncomfortable... But it''s not as painful as Shaoqin''s humiliation at the moment. Shi Shaoqin''s despair and nausea and Shi juechi''s sadness and pain seem to stimulate Luo Songxian''s senses. He not only didn''t stop, but also intensified the game that distorted human nature "Ah --" Shi Shaoqin screamed and sat up suddenly. He stared in horror, and even, because of his dream, his whole forehead and face were completely covered with a fine cold sweat. Such sweat, full of fear under panic How many years, how many years has he not achieved this dream?! Even now, he, who is strong, has forgotten that feeling ''clang -'' "Bang!" "Clatter..." Jane Mo suddenly opened her eyes and subconsciously looked around. Some of them couldn''t turn around. Under the gentle light of the wall lamp, it is completely familiar and strange She has been in Mo palace for more than ten days, but she is not used to the environment here. She feels very strange every time she opens her eyes. "Bang!" Suddenly, there was another sound, which was full of sudden profits. Jian Mo frowned and instinctively controlled her consciousness. When she reacted, she had reached the door of Shi Shaoqin''s bedroom Inside came the sound of sharp things breaking and colliding, and Jane Mo''s eyebrows were wrinkling and tightening. Subconsciously, her hand has been put on the doorknob "If I were you, I would never open this door now..." Chapter 760 The voice of indifference came from one side, with a treacherous look. Jane Mo looked sideways and slightly released her hand when she looked at Mosen''s cold vision without temperature "Sometimes people have to turn a blind eye, and sometimes... They have to listen." Morson walked up. "If you don''t want to sleep, go anywhere, just don''t stay here." Jane Mo inexplicably had an unspeakable feeling for Mosen That feeling is full of hostility! No, it''s not her hostility to him... It''s his hostility to her! Jane Mo didn''t think much, just looked at the closed bedroom door, then turned around and wanted to leave How about Shi Shaoqin? What does it have to do with her? Twice, doesn''t she have a long memory? Do you have to wait until Xiaoyan has an accident before she regrets it? Shi Shaoqin''s life should be his own responsibility... No one can do anything for him! Jian Mo gently held her back and walked forward step by step... It seemed that she didn''t find anything, and there was no movement in the bedroom. "Can you walk with me?" Behind him came a voice that was tired and even hoarse to fragile. Jane Mo stopped, didn''t move, didn''t speak... And didn''t look back. She wanted to refuse, but under such a voice, she couldn''t bear to She is not a virgin white lotus, and she will not want to save everyone from the flood of maternal love... But even though she is afraid of Shi Shaoqin, she can''t completely ignore it. "Is that ok?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was filled with imperceptible begging, but these words betrayed him. Jane Mo still didn''t move. She was struggling about whether she would put herself and Xiaoyan into a dangerous situation again. Morson kept standing by, silent. Even, he didn''t look at Jane However, the slightly drooping eyes were full of haze under Shi Shaoqin''s two words. "Let''s go..." Jane Mo sighed and turned back. However, the moment I looked back, when I saw some decadent Shi Shaoqin, I was obviously surprised in my eyes. Shi Shaoqin pulled the corners of his mouth, but found that he had no way to control his reason at the moment... He had to give up. Moonlight, beach, waves... Two figures. No one spoke, except the sound of the waves. Jian Mo didn''t ask shi Shaoqin what had happened. After all, this man''s temper sometimes came inexplicably. Shi Shaoqin naturally won''t explain what happened, but at that moment, he just opened the door and saw Jian Mo''s figure At that moment, he wanted to be alone. Even if, just like this, stay quietly and quietly with him for a while. The night of Mo palace is already very deep, and even the drug factory has been rested. "Mo''er..." Shi Shaoqin suddenly opened his mouth, and his voice was still filled with fatigue. "Huh?" Jane Mo answered faintly, without much emotion. Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, and Jian Mo didn''t urge. After a long time, Shi Shaoqin slowly asked, "if... Chen had something very unbearable and even subverted your three outlooks, how would you treat him?" Jane Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin strangely, and then answered lightly: "it depends on what..." Shi Shaoqin stopped, as if surprised by Jian Mo''s rational answer. Jane Mo was also a little tired. She simply found a place with thick sand and sat down. "To subvert the three outlooks, I don''t know what degree is subverting the Three Outlooks in your eyes." Jane Mo said calmly, "but I love this man. No matter what happened, I will find an excuse for him." Shi Shaoqin also sat down beside Jian Mo and looked at her with complex emotions "I''m an ordinary person, but I''m also a person who has experienced some things of life and death..." Jian Mo''s voice is still very calm. "I can''t say that I can see through many things, but I know very well that in this life, it''s not easy to meet someone you love and he just loves you." Jian Mo glanced at Shi Shaoqin, "nothing can make me give up ah Chen..." "Whatever happened?" Shi Shaoqin suddenly asked with some eagerness. Jane Mo smiled and nodded. Under the moonlight, her smile was particularly soft and calm, pure and even without a trace of impurities. Shi Shaoqin looked at it like this. He was a little crazy "If..." Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed suddenly. Even in his voice, there was a strange dignified voice, "if he had been violated by a man?!" "..." Jian Mo didn''t react for a moment, but instinctively looked at Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin kept his eyes on Jian Mo and didn''t miss her mood at all. After a while, Jian Mo reacted. What is Shi Shaoqin talking about?! "You..." Jane Mo hesitated and then asked definitely, "what did you just say?" Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were slightly cold, word by word, and slowly said, "I said... If Chen has been violated by a man, can you not care?" There was a "buzzing" sound in Jian Mo''s head. Subconsciously, she looked at Shi Shaoqin with resistance, and even questioned his words from the bottom of her eyes. This person has always been unable to see others happy Even, like to add their unhappiness to others. "I don''t believe it!" Jane Mo gritted her teeth and said. "Do not believe, or resist to believe?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t give Jian Mo a chance to avoid. Jian Mo''s breathing was a little heavy, and her heart contracted and hurt. "It''s impossible... How could such a thing have happened?" Shi Shaoqin looked at the sea, "can you fully understand the darkness of this world?" Tears, so inadvertently fell down. Jane Mo''s eyes are completely distressed, even a little annoyed. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo again, looked at her burning eyes, and his heart suddenly moved. "How could this happen?" Jane Mo tried to control her sadness, but there was no way, "how could ah Chen have experienced such a past?" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, "do you love him?" Jane Mo sucked her nose and growled, "shouldn''t she be distressed? What kind of humiliation is that? How did he survive..." "Mo''er," Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo blankly, "don''t women feel sick when they hear such things?" Jian Mo''s eyes were wet. He looked at Shi Shaoqin and couldn''t say the complex emotions in his heart, "you don''t understand... Because you haven''t loved at all!" "Yes..." Shi Shaoqin restrained his eyes. "I haven''t loved, so I don''t understand your feelings." "Shi Shaoqin..." "Huh?" Shi Shaoqin answered softly. Jane Mo trembled gently and looked at her eyelashes. "What you just said is false... It''s just to test me, isn''t it?" Chapter 761 Shi Shaoqin looked at the urgency at the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes. After a while, he slowly opened his mouth: "since it''s heartache, not nausea, you hope this thing is false... Don''t you think it''s ridiculous?" Jane was stunned and forgot the overflow of emotion. She just frowned and said, "I don''t want to sympathize with him..." "Huh?" Shi Shaoqin was puzzled. "I don''t want to sympathize with him," Jane Mo narrowed her eyes and looked at the deep sea under the dark night. "My sympathy is what will make him collapse." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, as if he still didn''t understand Jian Mo''s meaning. "If something like that really happens," Jane Mo lowered her eyes, "I can''t help but want to love him... And such love sometimes turns into a kind of wordless sympathy." Jian Mo glanced at Shi Shaoqin, lay down slowly, looked at the stars in the ink sky, and his eyes gently fanned She was almost certain that Shi Shaoqin had just tested her. Although she doesn''t know what his purpose is She doesn''t want to know! "I don''t know what happened to ah Chen, but it must be unbearable and painful." Jian Mo''s voice calmed down obviously. "He said he would tell me in person, so I''ll wait..." She looked at Xianshi Shaoqin, "but it''s definitely not unbearable in your mouth." Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight. Gradually, he was deep at the connection between the ink space and the sea, and couldn''t see the edge. "Is that part of the past related to you?" Jane Mo asked, but she was already sure, "don''t try me again... I just didn''t turn around for a moment." Jane Mo looked back and found the Polaris. "Every life has its own star, a bright star that can guide its own direction... I''m ah Chen''s star!" It''s a warning and a statement of fact. Jane Mo is a little confused now. She doesn''t know what Shi Shaoqin thinks of ah Chen or what''s going on However, she cannot be vague about the issue of swearing in sovereignty. Shi Shaoqin still didn''t speak, so his eyes were naked and looked at Jian Mo without any cover up She said... Is she the guiding star of Chen? "Polaris is often not someone''s." Shi Shaoqin looked down Jian Mo''s line of sight. Jane Mo smiled, "but I''m not the Polaris," she looked at Shi Shaoqin and looked at him. "I''m just the unique star belonging to ah Chen!" Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo''s eyes were completely stirred together, one examining and one firm. Ah Chen is hers, she is ah Chen''s... no one can change this. Jane Mo is so firm, just because of love? However, how did a contracted wife, she and Chen, come to this point? They are eager to declare their possession and ownership of each other?! Jane Mo''s thoughts are simple, and what she wants to express is also very simple Under the influence of rotten culture, she didn''t realize... That Shi Shaoqin was in the wrong direction from beginning to end. At this moment, Shi Shaoqin seemed to understand something gradually, and gradually, what began to grow wantonly in the bottom of his heart The better thing to taste is greed! The night is as deep as the sea, but as soft as the moon. On the beach, Jian Mo looked at the stars and passed on her miss for Gu Beichen Shi Shaoqin just looked at Jian Mo quietly. In the depths of his sight, it seemed as if something was surging... With the madness of urgency and the retreat of forbearance. Far away Morson stood next to the flower bed of sunflower seeds and looked at the figure on the beach indifferently. Gradually, the dark under the eyes showed. "It''s possible... Mo palace will be different because of Jane mo." Carney didn''t know when he came out of the castle. Morson looked back at him and remained silent. He just stopped his uncontrollable madness ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen invited Luo Songxian to a private club in San Francisco. He can play golf and drink tea Tea, which was airlifted by Xiao Jing overnight, is the best tea in China. Whether it''s playing golf or drinking tea, it''s a time-consuming thing... Plus eating a meal, it can''t be done in a few hours. And such time is enough for Xiao Nan to do a lot of things. In the underground fighting field, Xiao Nan was wearing tight pencil pants, an I-shaped vest and a small coat. It''s hot and charming, just like a cold and arrogant wild rose. In the noisy environment, there is a great deal of noise. Everyone''s attention fell on the fighting field, constantly shouting about the side they bet or support. Xiao Nan glanced around and finally sat down next to a thin man, "how many games are there today?" "Three games!" The man''s subconscious answer. "Who do you think will win?" Xiao Nan asked again. The man looked at her, "Red Square..." Xiao Nan smiled, "I think it''s blue... After all, the gold Lord likes blue today!" The man looked at Xiao Nan again, then smiled and said, "come with me." Then he got up and walked towards the backstage Xiao Nan also followed in the past. The talent went in and flew over She instinctively deviated slightly, and her foot almost wiped her chest. "Good skill." "Such a gift... I don''t like it." Xiao Nan hissed coldly. "This is what you want," the man handed Xiao Nan a file bag. "Where''s what I want?" Xiao Nan sniffed, "three minutes later." "Then wait until you get something!" The man immediately wanted to take back the file bag. Xiao Nan smiled, "I can''t help you..." Suddenly, the sound of "clattering" came from the backstage, which was no different from the fighting field in front. Three minutes later, Xiao Nan has got the information When the man got up from the ground, he wanted to continue. He just clenched his fist. He heard the little brother say, "brother, the money has arrived." The man stopped the momentum and looked at Xiao Nan angrily. "The rules of the road, don''t let me know that the news is from you..." Xiao Nan said coldly, "otherwise, I will let you know that I have my life to take money and spend it!" Giving a warning look, Xiao Nan took the information and left the underground fighting field. The skinny man rubbed the blood on the corner of his mouth, hissed coldly at Xiao Nan''s back, and then turned to look at the account Two hundred thousand dollars, not a penny! The man hissed coldly, then picked up his mobile phone and broadcast the number "Lord Luo, Xiao Nan came to get the information himself." "Yes!" Luo Songxian responded and, taking advantage of the situation, threw the golf club to the caddie. "You can see what happens next... Don''t bother me." "Yes!" Luo Songxian hung up the phone and went to Gu Beichen. "Unexpectedly... Chen Shao''s vision of equestrian is poisonous. This golf is also unique." Chapter 762 "Lord Luo agreed." Gu Beichen said humbly, "it''s almost time. Go and have a cup of tea first, or you can prepare for dinner." "OK..." Luo Songxian answered with a smile on his face. The two entered the lounge, and Luo Songxian went to the bathroom first. Gu Beichen timely sent a text message out. Soon, Xiao Nan came back. Xiao Nan: prepare for action! Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed. At the right time, the corners of his mouth overflowed with a cold smile, but for a moment, it converged as if nothing had happened. Xiao Nan received her mobile phone, then turned on the computer and entered the DOS interface. Enter the command, see the scrolling string. After delimiting, the computer enters a specific virtual room. "I enter from the front," Xiao Nan issued a command, "Xiao Heng, you and Xiao Yu enter from the rear side, and Xiaoqiang will remotely control and monitor..." "Will the cockroach''s ability to deal with Luo Songxian''s defense system be too nervous?" Xiao Heng asked with some worry. Xiao Yu did look indifferent, "just disturbing the monitoring line, this should be no problem." "The most important thing now is," Xiao Nan said with a cold face, "you can''t let Luo Songxian know that you two have come to San Francisco." "I see." Xiao Heng and Xiao Yu answered. Xiao Nan sighed, "the dark game in the Ming game is a dangerous chess. I don''t know if I can avoid Luo Songxian." "Brother Xiao said, just listen to Chen''s arrangement..." Xiao Heng smiled, "sister, what are you worried about?" After a pause, he joked, "I''m so worried about Chen Shao. I don''t know. I thought you liked Chen Shao." "..." Xiao Nan twitched at the corner of her mouth, "talk disorderly. Be careful I tear your mouth!" Xiao Heng stopped talking immediately. Among the five siblings of the Xiao family, there is no one who is not afraid of the eldest Xiao Nan Although it''s a woman, it''s a poisonous scorpion. Stung you, can make you remember deeply, want to die. "Don''t be poor," Xiao Nan said coldly, "remember, today is just a test, you can''t explore anything..." "Yes!" Xiao Heng and Xiao Yu answered. "Take action in half an hour..." Xiao Nan cut off the signal and then called Xiao Qiang. "We''ll take action in half an hour. Have you finished the monitoring and replacement video over there?" "OK." "Yes!" Xiao Nan answered and wanted to hang up. Suddenly, she suddenly remembered something, "by the way, what''s the situation over Erjing?" "I''m in a mess..." Xiao Qiang sighed heavily. "He doesn''t want to disturb Chen Shao''s affairs, but the turmoil in the emperor''s stock market is not as simple as someone wants to control." Before the acquisition of JK, there was a shareholder who had never appeared secretly Even if we now control JK and have been incorporated into the emperor''s flag, this man still doesn''t appear. Even, on the face of it, some people have begun to merge imperial retail shares, which makes people have to doubt something. But Chen Shao has the absolute control of the emperor. Even if the mysterious man collects all the loose shares of the emperor, he can''t shake his power in the emperor. Then, the only way is to start from the gray area. Xiao Nan heaved a sigh and didn''t continue to ask anything. After saying something, she hung up the phone. While walking out, she sent a message to Xiao Jing: you are the most solid rear force of chenshao. Don''t fall off the chain. Xiao Jing smiled astringently: when the emperor goes bankrupt, it seems that I will eat with you again. Xiao Nan couldn''t help laughing: she was still in the mood to joke. It seems that things are not as bad as expected. Xiao Jing: each performs his own duties. If you don''t hurry up, I''m afraid the follow-up counterattack will make Chen lose two ends on fire. Xiao Nan: I see! Xiao Jing didn''t reply again. He just looked at some data circuit diagrams on the video recorder. At this moment, before dawn in Los Angeles, the snow outside began to fall again, and the ground was covered with a thick layer. Xiao Jing looked back and knocked on the computer. Then someone called "Brother Jing, do you want to see the person in charge of EMP securities?" "Yes." Xiao Jing answered, "can you arrange it?" "It''s difficult..." the other party hesitated, but there was a trace of cunning in his voice. "The big boss behind the scenes is estimated to be invisible." Xiao Jing immediately turned his eyes. "There is no secret talk in the eyes of Ming people... Why? Do you have to let me carry out brother Xiao?" "Hey, hey..." the other party immediately smiled, "if you can really carry out brother Xiao, I won''t be embarrassed." Xiao Jing suddenly wilted Indeed, he can''t carry out brother Xiao... Even if he knows clearly, as long as he carries it out, the person in charge of EMP will meet him. The other party was not in a hurry and waited for Xiao Jing to think. But after waiting for a long time, he didn''t speak, so he was worried, "brother Jing, now the emperor''s stock market is so turbulent, it seems that there are behind traders. We all know that in such a situation, it''s useless to fight back properly..." Xiao Jing didn''t speak. "Now the only way is the duel between the trader and the trader..." the other party said with a smile. "EMP''s favorite thing is to do this. It''s absolutely clean." "How do I feel that the boss behind EMP is deliberately watching a good play and dug a hole for us to jump?" Xiao Jing has a headache. "Don''t... we didn''t dig this hole." The other party smiled and said, "it''s just that it''s a good time to wait for the emperor to jump and let the owl brother pull it." "Dragon family has really done nothing to force the owl brother to make complaints about the dragon family." Xiao Jing finally Tucao a sentence and hung up the phone directly. At present, it has not been forced to use traders to hold shares. If it comes to that day... He will naturally leave the problem to brother Xiao and let him solve it. Anyway, brother Xiao can''t watch the emperor being directly maliciously hollowed out and bankrupt Xiao Jing tilted his mouth and looked at the time. He planned to take a bath and send Jian Jie to school. "The turbulence of the emperor for several consecutive days has caused the uneasiness of investors..." in the morning news of the radio station, the capable voice of the anchor came, "on the snowy morning, the door of major stock exchanges has been crowded with investors waiting for the opening of the market..." Xiao Jing listened calmly and remained unmoved. "The media has been crazy," Jane Jie blinked. "Say you''re going to transfer funds and empty the emperor while daddy is away." "Chen Shao has deducted so many year-end bonuses from me. I always have to find a way to earn them back." Xiao Jing replied with an indifferent face. In due time, the radio anchor just said the rumors in the market, that is, the problems mentioned by Jian Jie "People without IQ are really ignorant!" Jane Jie looked at the place where the radio came and sighed. "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth and glanced at Jian Jie. He felt that when the kid grew up, he must be the master of the black devil than Chen Shao. Chapter 763 Because of the unrest of the emperor, the people in Los Angeles are at a loss Coupled with the media that did not suppress, the news spread falsely and falsely is becoming more and more serious. Chu Zixiao looked at the report and frowned slightly. "When is it?" Gu CI threw the newspaper aside and took the porridge bowl. "Beichen doesn''t care if he throws the emperor. Let a special assistant stir up the situation here... He is in the mood to go out with Jian Mo and have an affair with Lu man." She said quickly and suddenly reacted to something and looked at Chu Zixiao opposite "It''s not appropriate for Beichen to take foam on such an occasion..." Chu Zixiao looked indifferent and glanced at the newspaper. There was a group photo of Gu Beichen and Lu man on it. "The media love to catch rumors." "Really?" Gu CI sniffed coldly, "this report has come out. Lu man stayed in Beichen hotel for a night before leaving..." Chu Zixiao frowned slightly, "Mom, you mean... Mo Mo is unhappy with Beichen, so I should catch her back?" Gu Ci was stunned immediately. When he just mentioned Jian Mo, he reminded himself not to tangle with this problem Why can''t you stop talking. "I... I didn''t mean that." Gu CI immediately said angrily, "she and your little uncle have children. You also said you would let go. How can you still..." "Don''t worry." Chu Zixiao said faintly, "I won''t intervene between Mo Mo and Beichen..." he paused. He lowered his eyes and drank a sip of milk indifferently. "Whether she is lucky or not in the future, as she said, that''s the way she chose." Hearing Chu Zixiao say so, Gu CI felt relieved "I''m ready," Chu Zixiao got up. "There''s a case to deal with this week. I won''t come back." "What about the weekend?" Gu CI hurriedly asked, "you have an appointment with Uncle Lu for dinner." Chu Zixiao immediately frowned, "Mom, I''ll deal with my feelings myself..." he coldly refused, "don''t arrange those disguised blind dates on me." After that, Chu Zixiao left Lishan villa without stopping any more and drove to the law firm On the radio, there is still news about the emperor. Chu Zixiao dialed Xiao Jing''s phone after wearing Bluetooth. "Chu Shao?" In Xiao Jing''s voice, there was a trace of ponder. "Is there something wrong with Beichen and Momo?" Chu Zixiao asked. As a lawyer, keen observation is necessary. Xiao Jing and Jian Jie waved and watched him enter the teaching building with the teacher. Then they turned and went to the parking lot. "Things happen at any time. Just solve them..." "What about the emperor?" Chu Zixiao asked directly. Xiao Jing smiled and asked, "does Chu Shao want to ask rumors or something?" Chu Zixiao immediately frowned, "I think you know exactly what I want to ask." Xiao Jing opened the door and got on the bus. After turning the phone to the car, he started the car and said, "I can''t tell you anything..." "Did Beichen instigate the emperor''s crisis?" Chu Zixiao asked. Xiao Jing has a headache. He is always tired when talking to smart people. "You believe that Chen Shao is good." Chu Zixiao sighed and was silent. Then he said, "I believe you, too." "Thanks!" "I can help you with something..." Chu Zixiao said. Xiao Jing''s eyes flashed a little ruffian, "if Chu Shao can find out the truth of that year, I think this is the biggest help to Chen Shao." Chu Zixiao was silent again, and finally said, "I know." After talking, they didn''t say anything to each other, but they all hung up the phone with a tacit understanding. The weather in Los Angeles is changing, but San Francisco looks peaceful. "I''ll think less in the evening." Luo Songxian said with satisfaction. Gu Beichen thin lips micro hook, "is there any chance to cooperate with Lord Luo in the future? This is the beginning. If Lord Luo can consider it, he has given enough face." Luo Songxian ''ha ha'' smiled, nodded, and got on the bus without saying anything. Gu Beichen watched Luo Songxian''s car leave. The expression on his face gradually converged and became indifferent. "Gu Beichen''s people started?" Luo Songxian asked, looking at Gu Beichen''s increasingly distant figure from the reversing mirror. "Do it." Wang Qicheng smiled with deep meaning, "some people are mistaken by their intelligence... Xiao Nan thought what he took away was real information." Luo Songxian''s sharp eyes were deep. "One night, Gu Beichen''s words were watertight, and his expression was even more self-contained... If such a person was put more than ten years ago, I must accept it." After a pause, he sighed softly, "what a pity..." Wang Qicheng looks at Luo Songxian and doesn''t know if his sentence "what a pity". Is it a pity that he didn''t know this person in those years, or is it a pity to destroy this person now?! "Lu man doesn''t have to worry too much," Luo Songxian said suddenly. "I''m afraid Gu Beichen already knows she''s mine." "Yes!" ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen returns to the hotel, and Xiao Nan has returned. "The old fox really played tricks..." Xiao Nan handed the information in her hand to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen looked over and said, "then I will wrong you." "Without some blood, how can the old fox think we believe it?" Xiao Nan said coldly. Gu Beichen threw the information on the table, turned around, took the wine and poured two cups, "have Xiao Heng and Xiao Yu found out?" "Yes." Xiao Nan replied, "the last blow will not give Luo Songxian a chance." This time, everyone is playing with the plan, but who can play better than who... We should not only guess each other''s plan, but also guess our own plan with each other. In this case, they are often influenced by their own subjective consciousness Then there will be mistakes. No matter which step you take, you can''t make a difference. Gu Beichen suddenly took a deep look and handed Xiao Nan the wine cup with a trace of slowness "What''s the matter?" Xiao Nan took the cup and said, "is there something wrong?" Gu Beichen sat down on the sofa, "Luo Songxian has stood up for so many years. Although Shi Shaoqin can''t pull him down, he can still make him uncomfortable..." "Is it possible that Shi Shaoqin can''t calm down to him because of past events?" Xiao Nan frowned and asked. Gu Beichen shook his head. On his cold face, he was completely indifferent under calm, "no..." He knows Shi Shaoqin, so it is impossible for Luo Songxian to grow so strong now. "I''m afraid Luo Songxian is looking for an opportunity," Gu Beichen said slowly with his thin lips. "Find an opportunity to completely disrupt me." "Chen Shao means..." Gu Beichen shook his head. He couldn''t understand what it was for the moment. Emperor or Mo''er?! It won''t be Mo''er Mo palace is Shi Shaoqin''s place. He handles Shi Shaoqin''s affairs and asks him to take Mo''er back to Mo palace... In fact, to some extent, it is to protect Mo''er''s safety. Chapter 764 "Well..." Jane Mo whispered and slowly opened her eyes. The soft morning light spilled in through the gap of the curtain, showing warmth. Thoughts were a little empty, and Jane Mo didn''t get up immediately The last memory stayed on the beach. She lay on the sand, looked at the Polaris and thought of ah Chen Later Then she seemed to fall asleep?! Suddenly wake up, the head is also instantly clear. Jane Mo looked around to make sure she was really in bed Shi Shaoqin brought her back?! Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and despised herself for falling asleep when she was with Shi Shaoqin. Get up and get out of bed While brushing her teeth, Jane Mo looked at herself in the mirror. Gradually, the things of last night appeared in her mind. She hasn''t seen Shi Shaoqin so out of control that she can smash things? When he asked her to walk with him, although he didn''t see his expression, there was helplessness in his voice! Will such people also be helpless and out of control? Jane Mo brushed her teeth slowly, but in a flash, she couldn''t stand shaking her head. She and ah Chen can''t worry about things. There''s still time to worry about Shi Shaoqin After Jane Mo washed, she went to see Shi Jue Chi first, but she didn''t wake up. "The doctor said that jueshao was not so bad," Xiao Siyue said with a smile. "I should be able to wake up in a few days." As soon as Jane Mo listened, her eyes lit up, "really?" Xiao Siyue nodded. "I''ll take care of it here. Let''s have breakfast first..." she said, and looked at Jane Mo''s big stomach. Jane Mo nodded. Jue Chi didn''t wake up now. It really didn''t make much sense for her to stay here. Xu was in a good mood. Jane Mo went to the restaurant all the way, and the whole person''s steps were full of joy. "You cook lunch today!" Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo, smiled and opened his mouth lightly. Jane Mo twitched uncontrollably at the corner of her mouth, "don''t do it!" Two sentences of dialogue, the moment, the restaurant condensed a strange atmosphere. J was breathless, even swallowed by the tense atmosphere. "If you don''t do it, lift all the sunflowers you planted..." Shi Shaoqin was silent before he found something threatening Jian mo. Jane Mo glanced at him, pulled the corners of her mouth, and showed a smile of skin and meat, "then go..." "..." Shi Shaoqin frowned immediately, as if he didn''t care about Jian Mo Hui and was a little angry. Jane Mo sighed, "I said, it''s really bad for you to repeat like this." She took a sip of milk. "Sometimes, the problem has to be found from the root or herself..." Jane Mo''s words mean something. Shi Shaoqin frowned, not expecting anger, but still thinking. J looked at Shi Shaoqin strangely and Jian Mo curiously. He didn''t know what happened one night later? "Try..." Shi Shaoqin held for a long time, coldly put down a sentence, put down the spoon in his hand, and the man got up. Three words make many people in the restaurant confused. However, Jane Mo''s mouth gently overflowed with a smile. She turned her head and looked at Shi Shaoqin walking outside the restaurant. She smiled and asked, "what would you like to eat at noon?" Shi Shaoqin stopped and looked back at Jian Mo, with doubts under examination in the bottom of his eyes. "In order to reduce unnecessary injuries and misunderstandings," Jian Mo shrugged, "I think it would be more appropriate to communicate in advance." Shi Shaoqin''s sight of Jian Mo gradually became deep. It was like a newborn child, full of curious research on the world. "Except dumplings..." Shi Shaoqin said in a tolerant voice, stared at Jian Mo deeply, and turned away. Jian Mo was surprised why Shi Shaoqin reacted so much to dumplings. When she looked back, she couldn''t help frowning When people have strong resistance to someone or something, they often have a past that can not be ignored in their memory. And this once, was it good for Shi Shaoqin not to be profaned, or bad not to be touched? "Hello..." J leaned forward and asked in a low voice, "what''s the matter with Qin Shao? Why... He feels very easy to get along with today?" Jane Mo looked at J and looked innocent. "You ask me, who do I ask?" "..." J twitched at the corner of his mouth, left his mouth and got up. While poking at the food in front of him, he said coldly, "I think Qin Shao is so strange these days..." Jane Mo thought deeply Shi Shaoqin is very strange recently. It seems that he can provoke his anger at any time, but he is not as frightened as he thought. "Hey, how dare you cook for Qin Shao?" After J murmured for a while, he didn''t bother to think, "aren''t you afraid of Qin Shao getting angry again?" "So I just asked the gentleman what he ate." Jian Mo handed a piece of fruit to his mouth. "He said that in addition to dumplings... If he gets angry again when I make something, I''ll buckle it directly on his face!" J didn''t answer or even answer. The atmosphere suddenly became strange Jian Mo''s hand, which was supposed to reach for kiwi fruit, was also stiff. Subconsciously, he looked at J and saw his eyes pass through her, as if looking behind her Jane Mo frowned and then turned to look Seeing that Shi Shaoqin didn''t know when he would return, he stood at the door of the restaurant. Jane Mo''s mouth twitched uncontrollably. Although subconsciously, she felt that Shi Shaoqin seemed a little different after last night However, the past experience and the resistance to this person in the body exist. Involuntarily swallowed, Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, "that..." Shi Shaoqin came forward indifferently, and a low pressure rushed towards him Just when Jian Mo felt that her breath was unstable, something threw in front of her, and she subconsciously caught it. Before paying attention to what was caught, Shi Shaoqin didn''t say anything, but left the restaurant with a cold face. Jian Mo was suddenly a little confused... Seeing Shi Shaoqin leave, he didn''t react. Even, I didn''t notice that Morson stood at the door and looked at her... Full of strangeness. "What?" J asked curiously, seemingly ignoring Shi Shaoqin''s attitude. Jane Mo looked down and saw that it was a card. Inexplicably, my heart burst into fireworks. Jian Mo quickly opened the card... What came into view was Gu Beichen''s vigorous and powerful font. "There is a wooden house by the sea. I have an occasional vacation. Watching the children playing by the sea, I suddenly found that... It is also a pleasure in life!" Jian Mo pursed her lips and smiled, as if she saw Gu Beichen holding her, standing by the sea and saying such words In an instant, there was such a scene in front of me. In the wooden house designed by himself, he accompanied the milk bag and Xiao Yan to play on the beach The sea breeze blew her long hair, and she rippled on the swing beautiful! Chapter 765 "It was Gu Beichen who wrote you the card..." J didn''t know when he had touched Jian Mo''s back. "It''s too strange... Qin Shao sent it to you." Jane Mo closed her mouth with a happy smile. "Is it strange?" "Why not?" J frowned and suddenly remembered the scene, "moreover, you are disrespectful to Qin Shao. He is obviously angry, but it seems that he doesn''t want to be angry with you..." Jian Mo looked at J, and there was a trace of doubt at the bottom of her eyes. It''s just that it disappeared in an instant If a person wants to change, he must first endure the boundless power in his body. Although, she still doesn''t understand... What happened. However, the speaker is unintentional and the listener is intentional. At the entrance of the restaurant to the kitchen, a figure took a deep look at Jane Mo, then turned and walked in... As if nothing had happened. After eating breakfast, Jane Mo took the card given to her by Gu Beichen and went out for a walk It felt like he was right beside her... With her and Xiao Yan. ¡­¡­ San Francisco at three o''clock in the morning, this time period, is when people''s consciousness is the weakest. "Sister, have you really decided?" Xiao Heng''s dignified face. Xiao Nan was relaxed and indifferent. Xiao Yu''s cold, expressionless face was filled with a chill. "It''s not a joke..." he paused and said coldly, "the three of us can''t really get that thing together?" "It''s also destroyed..." Xiao Nan said calmly. "Do you think Luo Songxian will give us the opportunity to use those materials?" If you want to completely disintegrate Luo Songxian, you must first disintegrate her power Only a person without the support of power can he become a turtle in a jar with his hands and feet tied. "Will the price be a little big?" Xiao Heng was more dignified and looked at Xiao Nan with a look of examination. Xiao Nan looked at Xiao Heng with ease from beginning to end and said slowly, "do you think... Chen Shao will look at me to that step?" Xiao Heng frowned slightly. For them... They were trained to die when they were young! It can be said that most of the time, they have to hold the attitude of dying in the end However, with the five people training together since childhood, they have experienced so much that they have already had deep feelings. It''s impossible to watch each other die! "Chen Shao," Xiao Nan smiled, but there was some helplessness, "it''s not the same world as us." His plan was calculated over and over again. If you are cruel enough, in fact, the matter may be solved soon... Where do you need to spare such a detour?! Now, if you delay the completion of things, you may have to pay an emperor. But even so, he didn''t want to watch them die He sighed secretly. Xiao Nan looked at Xiao Heng and Xiao Yu. "You are ready to take action... After I am caught, I must find a chance to do it for up to three days, otherwise something may happen." "Yes." Xiao Heng and Xiao Yu answered and watched Xiao Nan leave. The night near the early morning is always full of ghosts under laziness. While people were sleeping, Xiao Nan sneaked into the fighting field alone and got the so-called place where Luo Songxian''s lifeblood was mentioned in the data The air was so tense that even breathing seemed to stop. Gu Beichen stood in front of the window of the hotel. There was no light, only the starlight outside reflected on his face. He copied his pocket with one hand and held a cigarette in the middle of his other finger, but he didn''t light it... He just hung it on one side at will. Eagle eyes have been deeply dyed with ink space, so people can''t see his mood at the moment. However, the treachery that permeates the whole body gradually freezes and condenses the air! Time, a little push, a predicted result, but let Gu Beichen wait here all the time As if waiting for a miracle to happen. But when the East overflowed with fish belly white and a dawn penetrated the clouds, Gu Beichen slightly closed his eyes Turning around, he put the cigarette that had never been lit into the ashtray. He took off his clothes and went to the bathroom. Half an hour later, when Gu Beichen stepped out of the hotel, the man had retreated. The only thing left on him all night was the indifference. When Gu Beichen stepped into the hotel restaurant, he took it out, looked at it and answered the call "Chen Shao, are you up?" On the phone, Luo Songxian laughed. "I''m going to have breakfast." "I didn''t eat it either. Why don''t we...?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, "good!" "I''ll send someone to pick you up..." Luo Songxian said. Gu Beichen''s eyes lit deeper, "OK..." Luo Songxian hung up the phone and put away his smile. "Send a car to pick up Gu Beichen." "Yes!" Wang Qicheng answered and motioned for someone to pick it up before asking, "how dare he come?" "I really don''t understand this man..." Luo Songxian narrowed his eyes slightly, and the corner of his mouth spilled a touch of ruthlessness. "Throw the woman down to the end... I want to see whether Gu Beichen will save or not." "But..." Wang Qicheng wondered, "even if he was saved, it''s understandable. After all, it''s the man of the Dragon owl, and his relationship with the Dragon Owl..." "Hum." Luo Songxian sneered, "it depends on whether he is eager or not..." Wang Qicheng instantly understood Luo Songxian''s meaning. In the fields below, a man will go crazy when he goes... Not to mention a woman or a beauty! "Then I''ll do it now!" When Wang Qicheng finished, he wanted to turn around. Luo Songxian suddenly frowned, "wait..." Wang Qicheng stopped, looked at Luo Songxian suspiciously and waited. Luo Songxian thought for a while and then slowly said, "don''t worry..." a greedy smile spilled over his mouth, "Gu Beichen, I like him very much..." His smile deepened a little. "Think of some way. It''s still fun to keep this person with me." "That..." Wang Qicheng hesitated. "The woman threw it to the end first. She always had to do it." Luo Songxian said calmly, "let those people not touch first... Always give Gu Beichen a favor." "Good!" Wang Qicheng answered and went to deal with Xiao Nan. This time, Gu Beichen wanted to get the handle of Lord Luo, but didn''t get it... Instead, he lost a Xiao Nan. After all, he ate a sting. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen sat in the car sent by Luo Songxian, and the eagle''s eyes fell out of the car indifferently There was no expression on the cold, carved face. It was always external. However, my thoughts floated to last night. "Chen Shao, in fact, you don''t have to worry about me..." Xiao Nan thought for a long time before slowly opening his mouth. Gu Beichen just glanced at her lightly, "I won''t push a person to hell while pulling a person ashore..." "But..." Xiao Nan bit her teeth, "Luo Songxian will have a possessive desire for you!" Chapter 766 Xiao Nan''s words inadvertently flashed through Gu Beichen''s mind Yes, both he and Xiao Nan know that his means will make Luo Songxian have some thoughts about him that he shouldn''t have. But so what? He is not Shi Shaoqin, nor is he Shi Shaoqin who could not resist at the beginning! In this world, no one can be as strong as ever Only those who know their position can go further. Mo''er is right. If a person doesn''t know his position, that''s the beginning of degeneration. Gu Beichen looked back indifferently, and the car had stopped at a Chinese restaurant. Gu Beichen calmly enters the restaurant, and the antique flavor comes face to face with the rhyme and elegance of Guzheng... In foreign countries, it can always give people the illusion of being at home. After Mo Tong looked around slightly, Gu Beichen and Luo Songxian nodded slightly, and the man walked over. "Are there few taboos in Chen?" Luo Songxian asked. "My wife likes making dumplings very much," Gu Beichen said faintly. "She has a special preference for dumplings." "Oh?" Luo Songxian took a deep look at Gu Beichen and saw that he looked calm. When he said that "his wife likes making dumplings very much", it was obvious that... There was a gentle scratch on the bottom of his eyes. "I chose the right restaurant..." Luo Songxian said with a smile. "Their three delicacies dumplings in soup are unique." "Oh?" This time, I changed Gu Beichen Qingyi. Luo Songxian''s eyes were deep, but he was covered with a smile. He looked at Gu Beichen and recommended several morning tea snacks... Each exquisite. But I didn''t see Gu Beichen''s tenderness when he mentioned dumplings It seems that Jian Mo made dumplings for Shi Shaoqin. It''s really a kind of inertia, but it''s a pity... I didn''t know in advance and didn''t make better use of it. "San Francisco is not peaceful recently," Luo Songxian said slowly. "Chen Shao, if you have a big investment, you should be careful." "What do you say?" Gu Beichen asked indifferently. Luo Songxian sighed, "I prepared a relatively large investment before, and I have all the information. Who knows... My opponent sent someone to steal it last night." Luo Songxian said slowly and looked at Gu Beichen closely. He didn''t want to let go of his expression Unfortunately, from beginning to end, Gu Beichen didn''t have any expression, just faint. "I''m afraid it''s not easy to bargain with Lord Luo." Gu Beichen speaks slowly. Luo Songxian smiled. "With so many years of foundation, if the opponent can be so easy, won''t it be in vain..." he said, with a sharp light in his eyes, "it''s a woman. I caught her..." Gu Beichen said with a shallow hook at the corner of his mouth, "and then?" "Every industry has its own rules," Luo Songxian said in a sinister voice. "Women... It''s always easier to deal with them." The ambiguous words showed the depth under the metamorphosis. Gu Beichen was not stupid and naturally understood Luo Songxian''s hidden meaning. What''s more... Such a result has been expected since the beginning of his plan. "This time, I didn''t bring anyone. It seems..." Gu Beichen slowly opened his mouth, "I have to rely on Lord Luo more." Luo Songxian smiled, "I like talking to smart people... Chen Shao is the one who wants to cooperate. Your business, naturally, is mine." A breakfast seems calm, but the undercurrent is turbulent. Both Luo Songxian and Gu Beichen have their own thoughts In such a mind, the other party guesses and guesses wrong, but he relies entirely on his ability. However, people who are used to control tend to forget some of the most basic things... Under inertia, they always think they are the one who has changed everything. When Gu Beichen returned to the hotel, there was a rush to work on the way to San Francisco. He turned on the computer and went straight to a special page... Leaving a message. "Start time is tomorrow!" After sending it out, Gu Beichen''s ink pupil stared deeply at the computer screen... Thin lips, gradually overflowing with a cold smile. Thoughts, slightly away. When I was in Melbourne While Mr. Xiao gave him the information of luminous diamond, he also gave him another information. A... information about the structure of Luo Songxian manor. He can directly ask Xiao Nan to get what they want, but it has not been exposed. It must have been destroyed. Such a game, in the game... Just let Luo Songxian completely relax his vigilance. ¡­¡­ Jane Mo quickly prepared the ingredients for lunch, "J, that can''t move!" "I''ll have one first..." J didn''t care. He twisted a piece of mixed cucumber into his mouth with his hand and muttered, "take a bite of everything first. In case you buckle it on Qin Shao''s face, I can''t eat it again." Jane Mo laughed with a puff. J is dissatisfied and continues to eat the mixed cold dishes first Jian Mo took the things to be fried to one side for frying. Looking at the Chinese chef who helped cut vegetables across the street, he sighed and said, "you actually reminded me. Unfortunately, I didn''t care." "What did Miss Jane say?" The cook''s face was blank. "Dumplings..." Jian Mo pulled at the corners of his mouth, a little astringent, "but I really don''t understand why Shi Shaoqin is so disgusted with dumplings?" The cook looked down. "I don''t know, just know that Qin Shao has high requirements for food." "Oh?" Jian Mo looked at the cook and said softly. When he looked over, he smiled and turned off the topic. Jian Mo didn''t make anything special for lunch. Although Shi Shaoqin said that she could do anything except dumplings, she didn''t want to take any wire route. Four cold dishes, four hot dishes and one soup... The most common home cooked meal. "There is a home-made restaurant in Los Angeles. It''s well done..." Jane Mo suddenly remembered another meal. "I''ll treat you to dinner when I have a chance." Speaking too quickly, when Shi Shaoqin saw it, Jian Mo grinned secretly. People really can''t be too comfortable and easy to forget danger. "OK..." Shi Shaoqin answered faintly. "I''ll go too!" J said hurriedly. Jian Mo shrugged and said no problem. "Come back to Los Angeles later. Ah Chen and I ask you... To ensure all kinds of delicious food." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and was dissatisfied with Jian Mo''s emphasis on Gu Beichen... But there was no sound. A meal, eat particularly fusion. At least, Jane Mo didn''t feel the pressure in the past... Even, she was happy. Jane Mo didn''t know what Shi Shaoqin had figured out after last night, but she didn''t dare to think deeply Afraid, he asked her last night. In fact, he just wanted to be affirmed by others in disguise. No one likes to be pitied... Especially the powerful. Time is waiting, and a little bit passes... The distance from the rising sun to the stars is just a day. The night in Mo palace is particularly comfortable with the gentle touch of the sea breeze. However, there is always a faint gloom in such a night "You mean Jane Mo suspects you?" "He asked about the dumplings, which seemed casual, but I felt a little uneasy." In the dark, someone lowered his voice and said, "besides, I think qinshao is getting more and more wrong." "What do you mean?" "Several times, he even controlled his temper... If this goes on, I''m afraid there will be an accident if he wants to cause greater contradiction between him and Gu Beichen." The man listened and stopped moving vegetables. "He wants to jump out... It depends on whether Lord Luo agrees or not." After a pause, his eyes showed a fierce light, "isn''t it time for 15?" Chapter 767 Time, in two cases, will be very painful One is waiting, the other is expecting! Often, in both cases, when the result is good, the suffering index soars. Gu Beichen sat in the coffee shop of the hotel and drank coffee. Under the constant temperature, the European and American classic music played by saxophone was floating, which made people feel very comfortable. On the computer screen, there is a video of Jane Jesse coming to the rehearsal of the concert. The little guy and Su Junli play together. There is his shadow in both momentum and technique. Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and obviously dissatisfied. It''s definitely not a pleasant thing to have the shadow of other men on your son In addition, this man was born and even grew up with his son Or the one who takes care of her own woman, which is even more unbearable. Gu Beichen sighed. After the video, he took off his headphones and closed his notebook. Timely, the mobile phone vibrated. Gu Beichen calmly took it out and opened it Jay: Daddy, did you watch the video? Can I play well? Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a faint smile, showing his father''s doting: under such a revenge psychology, do you think my focus will be on whether you play well? Xiaojie replied with a smile: have you been recognized by daddy?! At the end, add a cute expression Jane Jie has many characteristics of Jane mo. for example, when she is good, she always likes to add expression when sending text messages. Gu Beichen''s smile is deeper: don''t test me. There is no woman in the world who can replace your mommy''s position around me and in my heart. Jay: I know. It''s just that mommy''s IQ is worrying. I have to worry about her. Gu Beichen can''t laugh or cry: she just has me to worry about. Personally, she doesn''t need other men to worry about her... Well, not even small men. As soon as Jian Jie saw it, he turned his mouth and simply called: "Daddy..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen asked softly. "How long will you be back?" Jian Jie''s voice was waxy: "I miss you... More Mommy." Gu Beichen looked out of the window and leaned slowly on the sofa, "almost..." "Really?" Jane Jie''s eyes lit up in an instant. "Well, really." Gu Beichen smiled and said, "after going back this time, I''ll take you home, huh?" Jane Jie didn''t speak, but the black pupil gradually turned into a circle of ripples "Good!" After a long time, Jack Jane smiled and answered. Didn''t ask anything, didn''t even say anything "Xiao Jie, thank you!" Gu Beichen suddenly said with a heavy voice, "I''m also very sorry." Jane Jie smiled. "If daddy can solve it, don''t say sorry... As for ''thank you'', if you can make your guilt less, I accept it!" Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and finally laughed. Any difficulty is not difficult, because... It''s really nothing with the support of family and the company of lovers. For a whole day, Gu Beichen was in the hotel, either in the guest room or in the restaurant or coffee shop. Occasionally I deal with some company affairs, but the CEO of the branch came to ask for instructions. The outside world has speculated about Gu Beichen''s behavior in San Francisco, and even it is absolutely strange. Los Angeles news is even more unscrupulous, like snowflakes falling from time to time... One after another. Xiao Jing is standing in Gu Beichen''s office with his hands in his pockets, looking at the video recorder. There are still three minutes to open "Dong Dong!" "Enter!" Xiao Jing''s sight didn''t leave the video device, but answered the sound indifferently. Someone pushed the door and came in. It was the Minister of finance of the emperor. "Xiao tezhu," the Minister of Finance said in a calm voice, "the open funds of Yadong bank have been in place, and the dark funds say that the vacancy will be filled at any time." "Yes." Xiao Jing answered indifferently. Looking at Xiao Jing''s breath, the Minister of Finance felt for a moment that the person in front of him was not Xiao Jing, but Gu Beichen. "However, if the collapse is too severe, I''m afraid the hole can''t be blocked..." Xiao Jing tilted his head, glanced at the Minister of finance, and then looked back indifferently, "block it first... Just survive today." Although the minister doesn''t understand why, it''s the same as why Yadong bank filled a hole in the emperor like this However, as an employee of the emperor, he naturally would not want an accident to happen to the emperor. The knock of "Dong Dong" came again. Without Xiao Jing talking, Susan had come in. "There''s a call from the government," Susan said brightly. "It''ll start the financial reserve." "Yes!" Xiao Jing still answered with indifference. Emperor, as a big brand enterprise in Los Angeles, has affected too many economies. Once it collapses, it''s not just the emperor''s business... How many people will go bankrupt and lose their jobs? Even... Will put the whole Los Angeles economy into a dilemma. At this time, it is not Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing''s work style to not give pressure to the government. Time, in the countdown The whole city of Los Angeles, even those who care about the emperor, are watching the opening. But the people who should be most concerned are far away in San Francisco, leisurely painting QR codes The outside world has gone crazy with the opening of the Emperor... The ups and downs on the surface are full of treacherous turbulence. Luo Songxian narrowed his eyes slightly, and his sight fell on the prosperity outside. "Gu Beichen hasn''t moved yet?" "No!" Wang Qicheng replied respectfully, "whether it''s the emperor or Xiao Nan." "Yin Ping played too much this time..." Luo Songxian sighed. Wang Qicheng drooped his eyes and said, "he was cultivated by Lord Luo himself. He naturally has Lord Luo''s style." "Yes..." Luo Songxian smiled. "I liked him and Shi Shaoqin. Unfortunately... He didn''t have the patience of Shi Shaoqin." Wang Qicheng didn''t speak, but waited quietly. "There is something wrong with the emperor''s funds this time..." Luo Songxian said slowly. "Even with the support of the reserve fund of the Los Angeles government and Yadong bank, it can''t be so much." "Lord Luo means..." Wang Qicheng raised his eyes and asked. "Gu Beichen, I still underestimate him." Luo Songxian sighed, "I suddenly thought... If such an introverted person combined with Shi Shaoqin''s double swords, wouldn''t they be allowed to play in this world?" As soon as Wang Qicheng heard this, his face suddenly became frightened, "how is it possible?" "There is no absolute thing in this world..." Luo Songxian converged and turned his eyes. "I won''t allow such an accident to happen." Wang Qicheng has frowned, as if he didn''t dare to have such a guess Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin cooperate?! Some Arabian Nights ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin stood at the door of the media room and looked at the focused J and Jian Mo playing games inside. He looked a little deeper "Hahaha, I won!" J shouted excitedly at the last blow, "Jane Mo, I said I could make you unable to fight back." "Just let you." Jane Mo left her mouth and couldn''t help muttering, "I hate playing with geniuses, hum!" The corner of Shi Shaoqin''s mouth raised a slight arc uncontrollably, but it soon converged. "Another round..." J said excitedly. "No..." Jane Mo said and was about to get up. J was disappointed. "If you don''t fight, you won''t fight. You''re not afraid of losing." Jane Mo didn''t bother to talk to him. "I''m going for a walk." "I''ll accompany you!" A faint voice came slowly Jian Mo looked back and saw Shi Shaoqin, smiling and nodding. Chapter 768 "Go and see Jue Chi first?" Jane foam said after leaving the media room. "OK." Shi Shaoqin answered, but there was not much waves. Jane Mo glanced at him, and the smile at the corners of her mouth deepened a lot. "In fact, how good are you?" "Huh?" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly. "It''s easier for people, and they don''t subconsciously want to have a distance from you..." Jian Mo said easily. "Shi Shaoqin, sometimes it''s better to be a friend than an enemy, isn''t it?" Shi Shaoqin stopped slowly, his narrow eyes narrowed slightly, and looked at the figure of Jian Mo walking forward. Jane Mo walked for a while and felt that there was no one around her. While frowning, he looked back and saw Shi Shaoqin still standing there, "what''s the matter?" "It''s all right..." Shi Shaoqin answered faintly. He took a few steps with his long legs and followed Jian mo. After that night, Jian Mo really felt that Shi Shaoqin had changed It''s not that there is no temper, nor is there no Yin and ruthlessness. However, he tried to suppress his temper, and even... Wanted to try to get along. At least for her "Qin Shao, Miss Jane." Xiao Siyue saw the two people coming and said hello. The corners of his mouth said with a smile, "I just woke up less, but I was too weak and fell asleep again... Dr. Smith said, it''s OK. I''m going to inform you." As soon as Jian Mo heard this, he immediately looked at Shi Shaoqin with a bright smile. He saw a faint smile on the corner of his mouth Very small, but not his usual smile of alienation and trickery, but from the heart. "Do you think..." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "The world is still very promising sometimes?" Shi Shaoqin suddenly restrained his smile and frowned at Jian mo "Why do you say that?" Shi Shaoqin asked. Jian Mo took Shi Shaoqin''s hand and put it in the position of his own heart, "why?" She smiled and said, "ask your own heart!" Then she gave Shi Shaoqin a deep look and dragged her waist out Shi Shaoqin was frozen in place, but Xiao Siyue stared at it, as if he couldn''t react to the scene just now. Mosen didn''t know when to stand at the door. Jian Mo and he nodded slightly and went out first, thinking he was going to talk to Shi Shaoqin. However, when she crossed Morson''s side, inexplicably, Jane Mo was nervous. That feeling... Made her feel murderous. Curiously, he glanced at Morson. He was still cold Jane Mo secretly glanced at the idea she had just had. In Mo palace, except Shi Shaoqin, who would show that feeling to her for no reason?! Jane Mo pressed the elevator and looked sideways Seeing that Mosen didn''t know what to say to Shi Shaoqin, he frowned slightly, then answered, and followed without saying anything. "Why did you leave alone?" Shi Shaoqin was dissatisfied and followed Jian Mo into the elevator. Jane Mo looked at him awkwardly and suddenly felt quite cute. "It feels like Mosen is talking to you about something. I don''t want to hear it." "Are you not curious about me?" Shi Shaoqin asked lightly. Jane was stunned and then asked in a funny way, "why should I be curious?" When the elevator arrived on the first floor, Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin, who was asked by her, took back his sight and went out. The sea breeze is very gentle. You can smell the smell of soil when you go out. Waiting for sunflowers to sprout, Jane Mo felt that it was like waiting for hope. "I miss him..." said Jane Mo, standing by the flower bed. Shi Shaoqin looked at her coldly, "there''s no need to tell me early, middle and late!" Jane Mo smiled and looked sideways, "because in a sense, you control the distance and time he meets me!" "Do you think I''ll get what he wants so soon?" Shi Shaoqin sniffed coldly and took the lead in raising his steps, as if he hated seeing the flower bed as soon as he went out. "You won''t..." Jane Mo skimmed, "but ah Chen will pick me up soon." His voice was filled with the sound of trust, but Jian Mo didn''t continue to say anything. After all... Shi Shaoqin is a moody man. After turning around, the servant has prepared snacks and fruits under the umbrella. Shi Shaoqin prepared a comfortable chair suitable for pregnant women Jane Mo occasionally thought, if this man takes off his hostility, how happy the woman he falls in love with?! His carefulness starts from a small place "I''ll be very busy these two days," Shi Shaoqin said suddenly, with an unspeakable chill in the bottom of his eyes. "Don''t appear in front of me." "Huh?" Jane Mo slightly twisted her eyebrows, and some of them couldn''t react. The grapes stuffed in her mouth almost swallowed them directly because of surprise. Shi Shaoqin looked at her contemptuously, "didn''t you hear what I said?" "Oh..." Jane Mo answered angrily, and then the mosquito hummed, "it''s like I can''t see you for a moment, and the world has collapsed... It''s really crazy self-confidence!" "Huh?" Shi Shaoqin is light this time. Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, smiled and shook her head, "it''s all right..." Shi Shaoqin snorted coldly, converged his sight and drank tea quietly. Such ''quiet'' and such company... He seems a little greedy. Chen can have Jian Mo because he wants to live in the sun?! Qin Mo just didn''t understand However, there is only one Jane Mo in this world! ¡­¡­ "Ask Gu Beichen to meet at the bottom," Luo Songxian said quietly, "send a message to the Mo palace and do it!" Wang Qicheng answered. He didn''t need Luo Songxian to say clearly. He knew what the so-called "hands-on" meant?! Sometimes things have two ends The connection between Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin is a simple Mo, so... If you want to cut off the connection, there is only one simple mo. Gu Beichen was not surprised when he received a call from Luo Songxian... Even when he made an appointment to meet in the field under him. "I''ll bring Xiao Nan out..." Gu Beichen hung up Luo Songxian''s phone and looked at Xiao Yu leaning against the wall. "You and Xiao Heng are careful." "Yes." Xiao Yu answered coldly. Gu Beichen didn''t mind. He was born with such a character and was so cold to the Dragon owl. "Luo Songxian seems to like fifteen very much." Xiao Yu raised his eyes and looked at Gu Beichen. "Is it a special number or a special day?" Gu Beichen''s eyes sank slightly, which made people can''t see to the end "Fifteen, it''s just a devil''s night." Gu Beichen''s voice was cold without any temperature. "People with distorted psychology will always make some crazy actions at a specific time..." "For example?" Xiao Yu frowned. Gu Beichen sneered, "for example..." he gave a slight meal, his sight was dark and terrible, "... Turn a person into a look he didn''t want to face!" "So you also choose to do it on this day?" Xiao Yu still asked calmly. Chapter 769 Gu Beichen was silent and didn''t answer Xiao Yu. Xiao Yu''s eyes without emotion rarely overflow a little worry. "On this day, our action is convenient... But you are dangerous." Gu Beichen still didn''t answer. "Just in case," Xiao Yu paused, "what if something happens, even if Luo Songxian is brought down?" "Do you know why Shi Shaoqin didn''t do it himself?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer the question, but the eagle''s eyes looked at Xiao Yu calmly. Xiao Yu''s silent eyes drooped, thought for a moment and shook his head. "Everyone has a hard time in his heart," Gu Beichen said with deep vision. "Luo Songxian is the hard time he didn''t go to in the past." "So?" Xiao Yu asked. "I''ll tell him..." Gu Beichen''s voice was soft but indisputable. "There''s nothing you can''t get through." The reason why "devil''s night" is called Devil''s night is that people sell their hearts to the devil at that moment. If you find it back, nothing will break down However, Gu Beichen didn''t expect that an impossible accident was waiting for him So suddenly, he almost went crazy! After Xiao Yu left, Gu Beichen continued to draw QR code When he was free, he was painting, one by one, single-layer, double-layer... All connected, it was not a love word or two, but a future he gave Jane mo. After drawing the QR code, Gu Beichen puts the paper into a box with a lot of paper. At the top is the design drawing of a wooden house. Gu Beichen picked it up and held the thin paper gently with his slender and powerful fingers. He was indescribable at will, but he cherished it. Gu Beichen has studied architectural design before, but after graduation, he rarely designs anything again It is rumored that he participated in the design of lanze garden... But there are only a few. In this way, the villa area was looted after it opened. In the end, he designed the one he didn''t sell. The rest are not Later, it was said that he designed the villa for Shen Chu. He never explained. Even if Jian Mo misunderstood, Li Yunze and they said so, he never explained. Is it designed for Shen Chu? In fact, he doesn''t know At that time, he seemed impermanent, but those who knew always knew... He couldn''t get out of the darkness of the past. At the right time, he just had the inspiration. He suddenly wanted to do it, so he designed it. As for coincidence, it''s really designed for Shen Chu... Maybe, who knows?! Sometimes fate is like this. It comes naturally, but it is not necessarily the intention. But this cabin is not Gu Beichen''s eyes became dark and deep, as if he wanted to turn into a magic shadow like brilliance. Seaside, cabin, swing... Lovers and children. After all, it''s beautiful "Mo''er, will you like it?" Gu Beichen muttered to himself, and suddenly he was a little uncertain. He was a gifted student who majored in roller compaction at the beginning... But now he is a little confused and cramped. In front of Jane Mo, he designed their home. He was suddenly afraid that she didn''t like it Although she clearly knows that he does it himself, she will like it! Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and smiled at himself. He put the design drawing and QR code together, closed the box, looked at the time... Ready to go to the restaurant for dinner. ¡­¡­ Luo Songxian sat on the wide sofa, holding a cigar in his hand. The air was gradually filled with a pungent smell. The film is playing in the projection. Judging from the picture quality, it has been for some years. In the picture, the boy stood there stubbornly, his body trembling, but his eyes were stubborn. "Give you thirty seconds!" The voice came impatiently, "Shaoqin, do you want me to do it myself?" The sound of "Ka" came at the right time. A flash of lightning cut through the dark night sky, and thunder followed. Shi Shaoqin''s small body has been tortured and lost a large circle, and his beautiful face is concave... Only his narrow Phoenix eyes are left, which become more and more fierce because of anger and humiliation. "Tut Tut, I like your little eyes..." the voice remembered again, "stubborn people can''t help but pity and love." The strange words made Shi Shaoqin feel more disgusted, but he couldn''t leave Compromise? Uncompromising For Shi Shaoqin at the moment, he has neither the ability nor the right to resist. The heavy rain poured down, just like the fire engine in the fire fighting. At that time, it can drive as much as it can. In the laughter, there was a collapse under humiliation... I don''t know how long, Shi Shaoqin lay on the ground like soft mud. The whip marks and red and purple marks on his body touched his eyes, and Luo Songxian pressed the pause button. After so many years, looking at the blood stains on Shi Shaoqin, he can get excited Luo Songxian was lying comfortably on the sofa... No one could give him the feeling that he could be satisfied as long as he saw it. Under the scarlet eyes, gradually, covered with layers of greed under the bath. Not to Shi Shaoqin, but to a man who is so indifferent as if nothing can stir up his waves... Gu Beichen! I really want to know if he can keep calm under such abuse Think about it, it''s exciting! The wheel of time is always laughing at people in the secular world Luo Songxian picked up his mobile phone and dialed a group of numbers... Numbers that have been stored for a long time but have not been called. Shi Shaoqin grasped the window lattice with his hand and used his strength more and more. It was sunny during the day. At night, there were tsunamis everywhere, and there was no light in the dark sky. He tried to restrain himself. He wanted to find a star... Even if it was weak. However, no Mo''er said clearly that everyone has a star to guide themselves. She said clearly... Why not? "Er..." Shi Shaoqin couldn''t help roaring, as if there was no way to restrain him on the edge of patience. The mobile phone vibrated in his pocket at the right time. Over and over again, he didn''t want to pay attention, but the other party seemed as if he didn''t answer and would never stop. Shi Shaoqin closed his eyes and powerlessly took out his mobile phone. Without even looking at the call, he picked it up and put it in his ear, "I don''t care who you are... You wait to die!" Shen Li''s words showed a ruthless thirst for blood. When Shi Shaoqin finished, he wanted to hang up the phone, but before he started, there came a cold and smiling voice "Little things grow up and have a good temper..." Shi Shaoqin suddenly froze. His face, which had changed because of forbearance, was subconsciously resisted. Breathing becomes rapid, and even because of resistance, the chest rises and falls "Why, it''s hard?" Luo Songxian said quietly, "is the weather good in Mo Palace today?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but, holding his mobile phone, began to hold it tightly "Do you know what I''m looking at?" Luo Songxian''s eyes fell on the projection, "I remember your body up to now. I beat it up one whip at a time. How excited my body is..." Chapter 770 Luo Songxian listened to the more and more heavy breathing voice coming from the phone, and the smile from the corners of his mouth gradually became vicious. "Remember fifteen?" Luo Songxian smiled and said, "tut Tut, today... It seems to be 15!" Shi Shaoqin''s breath was getting faster and faster. In his mind, he was completely crazy under the humiliation every 15 days. Such torture made him endure for several days and was about to collapse. "The smooth touch, because of the blood spilled from the whip marks..." Luo Songxian''s voice and ghost drilled into Shi Shaoqin''s ear, "tut Tut, I''ve never tasted so fresh and tender blood... And so extreme lump feeling!" "You shut up, you shut up -" Shi Shaoqin roared. Suddenly, the mobile phone in his hand showed a parabola and was thrown out. The sound of "bang" came, which was like completely breaking the line of Shi Shaoqin''s restraint "Ah --" The suppressed roar came, followed by the sound of heavy objects falling down in the room. Morson stood at the door, listening to the sudden movement inside At first, it was intermittent. Later, it became more and more sharp. I don''t know if it''s because the outbreak after forbearance is more sharp. There''s even a roar in the house... It''s like a trapped beast. "Qin Shao seems to have different feelings for Miss Jane..." "Qin Shao doesn''t seem to care much about the factory these days. He''s actually walking with Miss Jane?" "Miss Jane is really special. Mo palace may become different..." "Did Qin Shao''s heart crack?" "Qin Shao..." "Miss Jane..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± In his ear, the words of others echoed, and Mosen''s hand gradually clenched up. It seems that, like the people in the room, they are suffering from something, but they want to burst out. How can Qin Shao like others? In Qin Shao''s eyes, it is clear that only if you have a heart, you will destroy But now?! He''s changing, for a Jane mo The night of Mo palace was shrouded by rolling waves. It was dark and made people feel that a storm was coming. "Dong Dong... Dong Dong..." The rapid knock on the door came, and Jane Mo suddenly woke up from her dream. In the dark, she fanned her lower eyelashes and was a little confused... Obviously, she was not in a state when she was awakened because she entered deep sleep. "Dong Dong..." The sound of knocking on the door continued. Jian Mo''s free thoughts gradually gathered together, and then he suddenly realized that someone was knocking on the door. Turn on the bedside lamp and get ready to get out of bed. Jane Mo glanced at the clock placed aside. It was almost two o''clock in the morning. Slightly frowned, and Jian Mo subconsciously thought it was Shi Shaoqin. Here, except for Shi Shaoqin who occasionally gets nervous, it''s estimated that no one is looking for her in the middle of the night?! With thoughts, Jane Mo opened the door When he opened it, a hand was standing there to knock. Jian Mo subconsciously stepped aside, and the man also stopped his action. "What''s the matter..." Jane Mo began and heard a heavy sound. That sound, like beating a drum, struck her heart, and suddenly her nerves shook. "What''s going on?" Jane Mo looked at the young maid knocking at the door and asked with a wrung eyebrow. "Qin Shao suddenly got very angry," the servant said at a loss. "Morson was beaten badly... In the past, Jue Shao would dissuade him, but no one dared to disturb him because of Jue Shao''s body." Every two or three days make complaints about the broken things. Of course, she wanted to return, but she still asked, "then you came to me..." "Qin Shao has been very kind to you these days. Can you persuade him?" The servant looked worried. Jane Mo is very calm. She remembers that last time Shi Shaoqin threw something, Mosen gave her advice: don''t go in Obviously, in his anger, Shi Shaoqin will do some crazy things. "First of all, I''m not sure what I can do." Jian Mo calmly looked at the anxious servant, "secondly, at this time, everyone should rest. How can you appear? Finally, Shi Shaoqin should not be like this once or twice. Everyone should be used to it." The servant was stunned by three calm questions But in a flash, she suddenly reacted, "I, I am..." she seemed to have something hard to say. She endured it and said, "I was looking for Mosen, but..." Then her eyes turned red. "Miss Jane, can you go and have a look? Qin Shao will really kill Mosen... He won''t hide at all." The sound of "bang" came again, which was somewhat shocking. Jane Mo told herself not to care Who can manage so many things in the world?! "Sorry, there''s nothing I can do..." Jane Mo said, and wanted to close the door. "Miss Jane..." the servant burst into tears, "please, just shout Qin Shao in the distance, as long as he is awake!" Jane Mo''s hand that is about to close the door is tight "Miss Jane, it''s a human life. Even if the life of Mo palace is cheap, there''s still hope to live!" Jane Mo closed her eyes. She was selfish and hated the servant The hand holding the doorknob tightened again. Jane Mo bit her teeth and heard the sound of beating things from time to time. Jane Mo bit her lower lip and touched her swollen stomach with her other hand... In the end, she clenched her teeth and ruthlessly wanted to close the door. However, at the last moment, it was strongly resisted. Jane Mo looked back at the servant. She was crying so much that I felt sorry for her In particular, those begging eyes make people unable to refuse at all. "Miss Jane, I beg you..." said the servant, who had knelt down. Jane Mo hurried out of the way, her hands tight and tight. Heaven and man fight. She is neither the virgin nor the Savior However, even if she doesn''t know, she can''t let Shi Shaoqin kill a person alive if she knows. Her breathing became urgent. Jane Mo looked at the servant kneeling there. One head turned into two big ones. Twice before and after, Shi Shaoqin had the impulse to kill her... Although he finally restrained it. Even if he is changing these days, even what she says, he also learns to think It doesn''t mean that she doesn''t have any danger in the past! There was a heavy noise again. This time, it was not a distant feeling, as if it was much closer. Listen to the sound, it should not be in the house "Miss Jane..." the servant was too anxious to help himself. "Please, if you don''t go there, I''m afraid Mosen will really die!" Jane Mo''s hand clenched tightly. She looked at the servant and said, "I''m sorry..." Chapter 771 "Well..." Jane Mo held back her inner kindness. Before she could finish saying no, she heard a painful chant. Jane Mo''s head exploded in an instant Human nature can not be ignored the most unbearable, at this moment, like a needle, into Jane Mo''s heart. Jane Mo hated the feeling. Her nerves were torn into two sides... Whether to go or not, as if she couldn''t decide by herself. She lives on the first floor with Shi Shaoqin. The castle is very big, and Shi Shaoqin is opposite her, but it is not the opposite in the real sense. But to go through the corridor and round to the other side In the middle, it is not an open field of vision, but blocked by other rooms. When they got out of the bedroom, Jane Mo could hear their louder voices, and even the pain that Morson endured. When Jian Mo reacted, her steps were already walking towards Shi Shaoqin''s house At this moment, she even forgot. Shi Shaoqin told her not to go to him these two days! What could I do?! She is not a cold-blooded animal. She can''t watch a person die when she knows... Even if her behavior is ridiculous and makes people feel helpless. ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin looked at morsen as if he were the biggest enemy of his life. Sharp thorns were set up on his whole body. "Qin Shao..." Mo Sen''s body was injured. It was all blood. Under the dim corridor light, it became particularly treacherous. "Calm down, I''m Mo sen..." "What do you want with that look at me?" Shi Shaoqin gnashed his teeth. His mind was full of the most untouchable things in his memory. The humiliation, the filth, seemed to push him into the abyss of despair He tried, he really tried! However, Luo Songxian dared to call him How dare he call him?! Or on such a day "Qin Shao, I just want to go in and say..." Mosen''s words stopped, looked at the cold light in Shi Shaoqin''s eyes, looked shocked and subconsciously retreated. Footsteps came in a hurry, even though they were hidden on the carpet. However, in a dignified atmosphere, such a voice is clear enough for people to hear. There was a complex light in the bottom of Morson''s eyes, but it was too fast. If Shi Shaoqin is sober, he will never fail to see... But at the moment, he has fallen into the edge of madness. "Mosen, you are the one around me... You know my rules best!" While Shi Shaoqin was gnashing his teeth, he didn''t know when he had another gun in his hand. The atmosphere is becoming more and more dignified, and the pressure people can''t breathe Morson swallowed it secretly, rubbing his body on the ground and retreated... Over there is the nearest place where Jane Mo came. "It''s just news from Gu Beichen," Morson said gasping. "He''s going to do it tonight." Shi Shaoqin didn''t seem to listen. He still dilated his pupils fiercely. With a bang, Jian Mo''s hasty steps suddenly stopped. That voice, even if she didn''t really see it, she knew... It was a gunshot. Jane Mo''s breathing stopped slightly, and even forgot her reaction At the moment, she didn''t find out when the servant who had been following her disappeared behind her. Blood spilled from the legs, shocking and frightening. Morson endured the pain and continued to step back, gritting his teeth and said, "Qin Shao, you said... I''ll inform you the first time Gu Beichen started, so..." As if everything had become so coincidental. Shi Shaoqin can''t wait to see Luo Songxian step by step into the abyss. He needs to know the time when Gu Beichen starts at the first time. At this time, Luo Songxian provoked his nerves and made him unbearable. He mentioned it at such a time "Bang!" Another shot! "Bang, bang, Bang..." Then, three shots in a row went out, and the painful groan finally spilled out of Mosen''s throat uncontrollably. The instinct of human survival made him step back The dark carpet was completely covered with blood, which made people want to vomit. Morson''s face has become a little distorted because of pain, even though he is trying to bear it He knows that Qin Shao can''t kill him! Qin Shao will only torture the memory that he can''t ignore, resulting in slower death... More pain. After all, people are most afraid of death when they are on the edge of immortality! "Bang!" Another shot hit Mosen on the shoulder At the same time, it finally awakened Jane Mo''s frozen thoughts. Her mind was empty, and the servant''s words sounded again and again... But she was so scared! She wanted to turn around and leave. She didn''t want to see what happened around the corner... But when she lifted her feet, she moved forward. I don''t know if I''m too afraid to forget to think, or driven by the subconscious In short, when Jian Mo reacted, he saw Shi Shaoqin holding a gun and Mosen''s flesh and blood at her feet. "Ah!" Jian Mo screamed with fear and retreated to the side At the same time, Shi Shaoqin''s gun has been aimed at Jian mo. Jane Mo''s pupils suddenly enlarged. She looked at the muzzle of the gun like this. The cold black hole seemed to announce something. "Shi Shaoqin..." Jian Mo subconsciously took another step back, his body was hit by the handrail of the stairs, and instinctively moved one step aside. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo in horror and resisted the eyes like looking at monsters. The original scarlet eyes became colder and colder. Footsteps, start approaching! Jian Mo subconsciously took another step back. She wanted to run away... But her feet were too vain to lift up at all. "Why, why..." in Shi Shaoqin''s voice, he roared, "why do we choose today?!" He felt like a wild beast going crazy, ready to attack at any time. "Shi Shaoqin!" Jane Mo panicked and could only call his name, "Shi Shaoqin... You wake up!" Shi Shaoqin was roared violently by Jian Mo''s words. He looked at Jian Mo''s complicated face. Suddenly, his mind seemed to be stirred by something. Jian Mo gasped and looked at the person in front of her. It was clear that he had been so warm to walk and eat with her... At this moment, it became a horror that had never been seen before. "Shi Shaoqin..." Jian Mo''s eyes have gradually become moist. She is afraid and nervous... She misses ah Chen so much! Her nose began to sour. She kept shouting the name of "Shi Shaoqin" in an attempt to calm him down. Shi Shaoqin looked at the dense mist at the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes, and his anger seemed to be slightly restrained. "Shi Shaoqin..." A choking cry is like tearing something''s hand. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo and gradually put down his gun Chapter 772 Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin''s actions, and the panic in her eyes could not cover her expectations. Morson was still lying on the ground, some of the blood on his legs and shoulder blades had solidified, but there was still blood seeping out from the hole of the gun. He looked at Shi Shaoqin''s actions, and gradually, his eyes could not hide their horror. Under such circumstances, Qin Shao needs to calm down because Jian Mo calls his name... So? The vicious light and bloodthirsty murderous spirit... Instantly projected on Jian mo. This woman... Even makes Qin less care than Gu Beichen! How?! Jian Mo''s breathing was heavy, and her chest fluctuated greatly. She didn''t notice Mosen''s naked and vicious eyes, but just held her breath and looked at Shi Shaoqin''s actions. Mosen secretly gritted his teeth and looked at Shi Shaoqin''s hand raising the gun, slowly hanging down In order to make Qin Shao''s rage reach the top, he didn''t hesitate to show his eyes with ideas when he just went in Although, just for a moment. However, he knew very well that at such a time, Qin Shao would see it very seriously. But in such a rage, Qin Shao gradually tried to restrain his irritability. A light Bang came, and the gun fell to the ground... Most of the sound was drowned out by the heavy carpet. Jane Mo has already mentioned the heart of her throat. It''s like sitting on a jumping machine and falling off the floor all at once Her whole body seemed to be evacuated, her shoulders drooped, her eyes closed and she swallowed hard. "Are you afraid of me?" Suddenly, the voice of Shi Shaoqin came. Jane Mo suddenly opened her eyes and almost instinctively shook her head. However, under such instinct, her frightened eyes betrayed her. Shi Shaoqin took a step forward and Jian Mo instinctively stepped back. "Mo''er, why should you be afraid of me..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was ghostly and treacherous. His steps were small and approached Jian Mo very slowly. Jane Mo shook her head. She wanted to tell him that she was not afraid of him... But her nerves didn''t allow it. "Why choose this day?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice gradually lost calm, "why choose this day?" Jian Mo frowned and looked at Shi Shaoqin incomprehensibly... Subconsciously, she forced her back one step. Morson didn''t move, but looked at the direction of Jane Mo''s retreat She has reached the center of the stairs, and when she retreats, she will be blocked by the handrail because of her slight deviation. The cold light in the bottom of his eyes was uncontrollable, and Mosen didn''t even hide anything. "Do you have to today?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was filled with anger under forbearance. Jian Mo doesn''t know what today means to Shi Shaoqin, just as he doesn''t know what dumplings touch him. However, with the experience of dumplings... She read some information from the bottom of Shi Shaoqin''s eyes. "You don''t want to see me, I can go..." Jian Mo swallowed secretly, trying to calm herself, even ignoring the colic from the tension in her abdomen. "Shi Shaoqin, I can come back to you tomorrow... I can leave now!" The water light at the bottom of Jane Mo''s eyes has overflowed uncontrollably. At present, she has no ability to think about whether Mosen will die. She is selfish. She still wants to see ah Chen alive... She wants Xiaoyan to be safe. She doesn''t care about the safety of others... Although it''s stupid for her to think about these again at this moment. "After today, I don''t have to!" Jane Mo sucked her nose and said in a choked voice, "except today, I can..." Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo and begged under that kind of sadness. He doesn''t like her like this, no! Shi Shaoqin''s footsteps didn''t stop, although it was slow and people couldn''t feel him moving. Jane Mo just instinctively retreated back until the handrail blocked her retreat, and she subconsciously wanted to help the handrail behind her. Shi Shaoqin has come to her Morson''s breath was held at this moment, and even there was expectation in the bottom of his eyes. From an angle, as long as Shi Shaoqin gently pushes... Jian Mo will end badly! "Please don''t appear in front of me, you just came..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was gnashing his teeth. He was holding back, but in such a repressive atmosphere, what Jian Mo saw was only cruelty. "Chen also chose today!" Shi Shaoqin''s pupils were dilated uncontrollably. Jane Mo looked at the frightened breath from the bottom of his eyes and almost stopped breathing at that moment. "Why do you all want to force me -" Shi Shaoqin roared and wanted to catch Jian mo. Even in such a rage, he instinctively didn''t want Jane Mo to be in such a dangerous place... To catch her back. However, when your hand touches Jane mo Jian Mo only felt that her hand grasping the handrail suddenly slipped and her body tilted down uncontrollably... And at the moment when Shi Shaoqin''s hand touched her body, her pupils widened instantly "Ah --" "Foam!" Everything happened too fast, too fast for people to react, and the air was filled with a richer smell of blood. Shi juechi was sitting in a wheelchair. He stared at the scene in front of him Jian Mo''s body and withered leaves rolled down the stairs layer by layer. Breathing stopped at this moment, and even the pressure of the heart could not remind him to wake up. He just heard gunfire in his sleep. Remembering that today is 15, I endured the discomfort of waking up and asked Carney to push him over to have a look Just out of the elevator, I saw the scene of Shaoqin pushing foam! Shi Shaoqin''s hand was frozen in the air, and there was a piece of cloth in his hand. He just looked at Jian Mo''s body rolling down... His breathing began to be messy. He just wanted to get her back. How did he turn it into pushing her? He tried to catch her, but... He didn''t! "Hmm..." Jian Mo finally rolled the first floor of the ladder and was blocked by the railing. Her forehead was full of sweat. She curled up and didn''t even feel pain... She just felt the constant overflow of moisture from the roots of her thighs. "Don''t..." Jian Mo burst into tears. In her weak voice, there was resistance under despair and grief, "don''t... don''t..." The weak voice, in the empty and dignified space, exudes the breath of death. "Shi Shaoqin -" Shi Jue Chi shouted at Shi Shaoqin like crazy, "are you crazy?!" Regardless of his body, he tried to stand up in his wheelchair Shi Shaoqin''s breathing was so heavy that he even forgot his reaction and could only look at the torn piece of cloth in his hand. Jian Mo''s eyes fluttered weakly, and the ground was already wet. "Save my child..." Jian Mo cried and looked at Shi Shaoqin on the stairs with the best vision she could. "Please... Help... Save my child... Please..." Chapter 773 "Carney, inform the doctor!" Shi juechi wanted to go forward. He was eager to know the situation of Jian Mo, "come on!" Carney wanted to come forward to help Shi juechi, but he got rid of him "Inform the doctor -" Shi juechi roared with all his strength. Carney gritted his teeth and could only take the phone and began to inform the doctor to the operating room. "Mo Mo will be fine..." Shi juechi said, and his body couldn''t support it. If he didn''t hold the wall, he would almost fall down. "It''ll be fine!" Shi Jue Chi said, "here is the best medical team and the best doctor... Mo Mo will be fine." The atmosphere was complex and strange, floating in the air. Except Morson, it seemed that everyone had forgotten the reaction. After Shi juechi''s feet were floating and finally fell down... Shi Shaoqin was finally awakened. He didn''t even take a look at the stone Jue Chi. The man had come down the stairs quickly "Please... Please..." Jian Mo whispered while crying, "help... Help Xiao Yan... Please..." Her vision has been blurred. She doesn''t know whether it is blurred by tears or because of the vanity of her body. "Mo''er..." Shi Shaoqin was like a helpless child. He knelt on the ground and looked at the blood on the ground. The whole person was nervous as if the world was coming to an end. He is determined to kill and kill. In his eyes, human life is like a chicken The blood he had seen was hundreds of times more appalling than the blood on the ground. However, he had never been so frightened or even resisted! "Mo''er, Mo''er..." Shi Shaoqin could only shout like this. He looked around at a loss and didn''t know what to do. "Qin Shao, send Miss Jane to the operating room!" Carney ran over and said quickly. At this moment, Carney seems to have forgotten that Shi Shaoqin is crazy... It''s possible that he won''t do it at all. Shi Shaoqin glanced at Carney. He nodded almost mechanically, hurriedly picked up Jian Mo and ran to the operating room "You''ll be fine, and so will the child!" Shi Shaoqin gritted his teeth and said, "I won''t let you do anything!" "Ah Chen... Ah Chen..." Jian Mo began to cry loudly, "ah Chen, Xiao Yan... Ah Chen!" She cried like this, as if in the end of despair, only Gu Beichen could give her hope. "Call Gu Beichen!" The words were squeezed out from Shi Shaoqin''s teeth. The rapid footsteps became more and more treacherous in the ink palace late at night All the medical staff of the Mo palace, no matter what authority they were, were frightened by an order and became nervous in the middle of the night. Shi Shaoqin kept walking. When the doctors arrived one after another, Shi Shaoqin had arrived in the operating room with Jian Mo in his arms "I want her to live." Shi Shaoqin said unsteadily, "I want her children to live too..." he roared, "if any of them has an accident, I''ll let you all be buried!" All the medical staff were shocked one by one. They had never experienced such a violent obstetrician of Shi Shaoqin, but they were shocked and forgot to breathe Smith and others swallowed hard. Shi Shaoqin has lost his usual calmness now. Even when Shi juechi underwent heart replacement surgery, he has never been so grumpy. "Ah Chen... Wu Wu... Ah Chen..." Jian Mo was still crying. The obstetrician had calmed down and said after a simple examination, "we should have a caesarean section immediately." She hurried to disinfect and prepare for surgery. Her heart was at sixes and sevens at the moment, and she didn''t know what had happened It''s just that the pregnant woman''s condition is a little bad. She doesn''t know what unexpected things will happen later. Jane Mo''s consciousness has begun to blur. Her hand is still on her stomach, holding it tightly, and her mouth keeps whispering, "ah Chen... I want ah Chen..." "Did you get through?" Shi Shaoqin roared at Kani angrily. Carney shook his head, his face was also worried, and kept replaying in his hand, "it has been unable to connect..." "Ah Chen... Ah Chen..." "Mo''er, you are good!" Shi Shaoqin said in a helpless voice, "your husband and child, I promise, I promise to let Chen come to see you..." "I don''t believe you... I don''t believe you..." although Jian Mo''s consciousness is vague, it seems that he can still distinguish Shi Shaoqin''s voice, "I want ah Chen... Ah Chen..." Shi Shaoqin gnashed his teeth and looked at Jian mo. he wanted to comfort her, but he didn''t know what to do. And Jian Mo always wanted to take care of Beichen, which made him anxious. "Qin Shao, you go out first..." the doctor said calmly. "If you delay one more second, pregnant women will face greater danger." Shi Shaoqin glanced at Kani again. He still shook his head. "I want their mother and son to be safe!" Shi Shaoqin finally put down his words and turned out of the operating room. Outside, there are doctors waiting for an emergency. In the operating room, only obstetricians and professional medical staff are left for the time being. Shi juechi endured the discomfort of his heart. He was always warm and moist, and his face was cold as never before. "Now, are you happy?" Shi Jue Chi Xu was so depressed that he never criticized Shi Shaoqin indifferently. He couldn''t help gritting his teeth and opening his mouth. Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but gradually clenched his hand. "No matter what happens to Jian Mo or Xiao Yan, it will be easier for you to pull Gu Beichen to your world..." Shi juechi seemed as if the tightness in his chest could not be relieved, so he had to find such a way, "Shi Shaoqin, are you particularly happy?" Shi Shaoqin''s hand clenched in an instant, and the sound of "Gaga" bone dislocation came, showing forbearance. If it falls in the ordinary, such ridicule, Shi Shaoqin will only accept it all according to the order, and even coldly go back to the past But at this moment, even he didn''t know. He was afraid! Yes, he''s afraid... Afraid that the doctor will come out and tell him who can''t keep it and have to make a choice. Even, he''s afraid... Tell him there''s no hope of keeping one! This feeling made him feel a fear he had never had before... So scared that he even forgot his original irritability today. Carney is still making unremitting calls to Gu Beichen, but he still can''t get through. San Francisco is the craziest time of nightlife The signal from Gu Beichen has been blocked. He was not surprised. Luo Songxian wanted to guard against him after all. "Chen Shao is like this, as if we can''t continue to talk..." Luo Songxian smiled and looked at the man opposite. "The interests that can''t be achieved are always a headache." "Indeed..." Gu Beichen calmly took out the smoke, and the steel lighter lit the smoke under the crisp sound. He took a cold, expressionless breath and said slowly, "I''ll take the people away. I''ll give Lord Luo three percentage points in terms of interests." "I like you best," Luo Songxian still smiled. "Simple and direct!" Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but eagle eyes looked at Luo Songxian deeply. "In fact, I don''t understand..." Luo Songxian also lit a cigar and looked at Gu Beichen''s eyes, which was obviously full of greed under the bath. Gu Beichen was unmoved, as if he hadn''t found his abnormal eyes, "Lord Luo, please speak!" "I don''t understand..." Luo Songxian smiled faintly. "How can Chen Shao put his wife next to a pervert?" While he was light, his voice was full of strange laughter, "don''t you worry?" Gu Beichen took a cigarette indifferently, but a faint smile spilled from one side of his thin lip. "What do you think?" "I think you should worry..." Luo Songxian has completely not covered up his thoughts on Gu Beichen. "You are about today... And I called him today!" Who is this'' he ''... It goes without saying! Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was cold and looked at Luo Songxian''s line of sight, overflowing with a sharp touch Chapter 774 The sight of Shang Luo Songxian, but in an instant, Gu Beichen recovered his indifference again. "Lord Luo likes killing hearts?" Gu Beichen''s words were light, and he was obviously unmoved. Luo Songxian is more and more satisfied with Gu Beichen. This man is too calm... Even though he is in a mess at the moment. However, you can never see too much information from his face. "Is it bad to kill?" Luo Songxian smiled, "how can I live to this day without killing my heart?" Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and smiled, "do you agree with my conditions?" He turned the topic to what he had just mentioned They are here today to talk about interests. They pretend to be confused with each other. Naturally, they talk in circles. "Man, I can let go..." Luo Songxian''s smile became strange, "but you, stay!" Gu Beichen had expected such a result. If a person has a mind for a man... He will be more persistent than a woman. Moreover, in order to let Luo Songxian relax, what he showed was what he loved. Even if... Let it be, he''s just him. "Me?" Gu Beichen chuckled, "Lord Luo has a big appetite..." In his voice, I can''t hear the specific emotion, so people don''t know whether he is mocking, sneering, or helpless! Luo Songxian just looked at Gu Beichen with a smile, but there was a strong and solemn look in the depths of his eyes. "I have a big appetite... That''s because I can eat it!" Luo Songxian smiled and said, "what does Chen Shao think?" "But I have thorns," Gu Beichen said indifferently. "I''m afraid Lord Luo can''t eat into his mouth." Then, his slender fingers flicked the smoke slightly, and he saw the unbridled falling of soot Luo Songxian saw the breath gradually overflowing from Gu Beichen, showing the domineering spirit under the fierce. "It''s my business to eat or not..." Luo Songxian smiled. "Although I sometimes like to play tricks, I really don''t want to do it to you." Gu Beichen has always been indifferent. When he stepped into this field, everyone has tacit understanding. Saving people? Or steal what you need Or, this is just a trap of Luo Songxian. It doesn''t matter. Gu Beichen was calm and calm. Even after Luo Songxian expressed so clearly, his face remained unchanged, which made Wang Qi Chengdu admire. It''s no wonder that such people don''t like Luo ye who was so crazy in the past, and they still want to subdue him. "Do you think," Luo Songxian played his cigar, "that the people you sent there can get what you want, so you have no fear?" "Lord Luo''s eyes are really wide." Gu Beichen''s face did not change, but his voice was mocking. Luo Songxian frowned secretly, "Chen Shao seems to really have confidence without fear?" Gu Beichen glanced at the time lightly. "Xiao Nan is no longer in your hand," the faint voice slowly overflowed his thin lips, "what do you think I need has also been in hand?" Luo Songxian''s smile didn''t change, but looking at Gu Beichen''s line of sight, he looked at it clearly. Wang Qicheng was already "cluttering" in his heart. Gu Beichen didn''t seem to be lying at all. He didn''t need Luo Songxian''s orders, so he quickly turned around and motioned When someone went out, Gu Beichen''s thin lips seemed to overflow with a faint smile. It''s a sneer! About three minutes later, the person who had gone out hurried in. He first looked at Beichen, then went to Luo Songxian and said in his ear, "Lord Luo, the man was indeed saved." Luo Songxian''s eyes were suddenly cold, "Chen Shao is really a good means..." "It''s not something Lord Luo can do alone." Gu Beichen slowly took a sip of smoke, then indifferently flicked the ash, "when people are old, they will be complacent." He said, with his eagle eyes slightly raised, "I''m not Shi Shaoqin in those days, nor Shi Shaoqin now... Lord Luo, do you think you can deal with me by dealing with him?" As soon as his words fell, Wang Qicheng''s phone rang. His breath was a little dignified. When he saw the call, his obvious face moved Then, listening to the eager voice inside, Wang Qicheng''s face changed uncontrollably. "Lord Luo..." Luo Songxian raised his hand slightly and stopped Wang Qicheng''s words. "I''m curious. How did Chen Shao do it?" Luo Songxian has been looking at Gu Beichen. Before, he had a clear mind and already contained a lot of Shen Li. Gu Beichen chuckled, only coldly, "Lord Luo asked Xiao Nan, or what?" The expression on Luo Songxian''s face couldn''t hang, "Chen Shao is delaying time now?" "Don''t need..." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes, still his indifferent appearance. He said softly, but there was no emotion in his voice, which made people feel cold. "From the beginning, whether Xiao Nan or the two people you touch behind are just a cover." Gu Beichen looked at the person opposite indifferently, "today I came here, but... I''m just a move in my chess game." He is the chess player and the one who was Only when he controls the game in his own hands can he confuse Luo Songxian and play it easily. People and chess in one, who says it''s not a sure win?! Luo Songxian has changed his face. "You don''t have this ability, Shi Shaoqin doesn''t..." the corner of his mouth twitched slightly, "even if it''s a dragon owl, it doesn''t!" "Who said no?" Gu Beichen''s tone was always light, "even if Shi Shaoqin has the ink palace now, is it really just because he can''t face some of your thoughts, so he can''t do it?" Gu Beichen chuckled, "no!" He didn''t wait for Luo Songxian to speak, "because he knows very well... Even if the Mo palace is strong, he is not fully sure of the staggered forces with you if he wants to win." "Are you so willing to be manipulated by him?" Luo Songxian said coldly, "even use your wife to control you?" Gu Beichen smiled. This time, he was a little sarcastic, "didn''t lord Luo already doubt... Is it a cooperative relationship between me and him?" In the end, Luo Songxian and Wang Qicheng changed their faces. Who would have thought that a man treated like Shi Shaoqin would cooperate with him? They are clearly not people of the same world "Impossible!" Luo Songxian''s sharp retort. "What''s impossible?" Gu Beichen murmured in the depths of his pupils and said, "do you think I can''t cooperate with him? Or do you think... Even if we cooperate, we won''t deal with it so quietly?" "I want to..." Gu Beichen smiled lightly. While drooping his eyes, he collected the coldness from the bottom of his eyes. "Lord Luo must think it''s impossible." Gu Beichen leaned over, put out the Yannian and got up. Under the already tense mood, he looked at Luo Songxian''s changed face "Naturally, I won''t kindly explain to Lord Luo," Gu Beichen leaned slightly, "maybe in the next time... Lord Luo can think slowly." Words fall, Gu Beichen raises his step and wants to leave "Do you think you can go?" Chapter 775 Gu Beichen stopped, with a faint smile on his cold, carved face. He tilted his head slightly and looked at Wang Qicheng. "What do you think?" There is an undisguised irony in the light voice "Lord Luo didn''t speak. Why do you think?" Gu Beichen chuckled and sneered. Coldly, Gu Beichen took back his sight and continued to walk out with a indifferent but steady step "This time, the information is still given by XK!" Just as Gu Beichen was about to reach the door, a cold voice came from behind. Yes, yes. Luo Songxian tilted his head. Under Wang Qicheng''s frightened expression, he looked at Gu Beichen''s lonely and indifferent back. "There was news before. You can get the luminous diamond so quickly because of the information given by XK." Gu Beichen didn''t move, but he didn''t speak. "I can''t think of anyone in this world... Who can be in my hand so that God doesn''t know." Luo Songxian is a person who has experienced storms all his life. Even at this moment, he can still be calm, "unless you have absolutely... And can''t make mistakes." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes, and after a touch of ridicule at the bottom of his eyes... He didn''t say anything. His slender hand was already on the doorknob. "Gu Beichen, do you really think I''m not prepared at all?" Luo Songxian sneered, "I underestimated the enemy in this game today." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deep and slightly frozen. "I''m looking forward to the next contest..." Luo Songxian smiled and gestured to the person guarding the door. The atmosphere becomes dignified in an instant Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gathered slightly and emitted two pure lights. At the same time, the man opened the door and went out. "Lord Luo..." Wang Qicheng asked anxiously. "Start the standby," Luo Songxian''s face was not as relaxed and dignified as before. "Gu Beichen, I want to see... Even if I lose this time, what can you win?" In the cold voice, there was ruthless indifference Just like the night outside San Francisco, it''s dark and heavy. "Block all means of transportation that can have direct contact with Mo palace..." Luo Songxian said coldly, "I want to delay as much as possible." "Yes!" Wang Qicheng answered and hurried to do it. Luo Songxian got up at the right time and walked out The information is taken away and the hidden laboratory will be exposed... Gu Beichen can''t give him enough time to do anything. All the money and even energy he invested... Will be wasted. Gu Beichen is a smart man. He is calm and clear. Where to pinch him will hurt! Gu Beichen got into the car, looked at the person sitting on the co pilot and frowned slightly, "it''s impolite to get into someone else''s car like this." "The conditions of Chen Shao and Mr. Xiao have been completed." The man didn''t speak in any tone. "Mr. Xiao asked me to bring you a message... He''s waiting for you in South Africa." "Good!" Gu Beichen answered without saying anything. The man didn''t even look at Beichen, but got out of the car indifferently. Gu Beichen didn''t stop to start the car and left When there was a signal... He took advantage of the situation and dialed out. Someone answered the phone, "Chen Shao?" In his voice, he was obviously relieved, "we are already in the Interpol Branch..." "Where''s Xiao Nan?" Gu Beichen asked faintly. "Xiao Nan suffered a little," Xiao Heng said. "If Chen said less, he left his hand and didn''t hurt more." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, "Luo Songxian is bound to do something. I''ll go there myself later." In the past, he would give Luo Songxian no chance to escape this responsibility "Good!" After Xiao Heng answered, Gu Beichen hung up The neon in San Francisco at night remains the same. Like many big cities, the changes of all people seem to have nothing to do with the people of nightlife. Everywhere is full of prosperity, but everywhere is full of indifference. The "buzzing" mobile phone vibrated. Gu Beichen didn''t look, but just picked it up "God, it''s finally connected..." an urgent voice came with a complex complaint. Gu Beichen immediately frowned. Before he spoke, he heard Carney say, "Qin Shao asked me to inform you..." Suddenly, carneton stopped Qin Shao just asked Gu Beichen to call, but didn''t say what to inform? Let Gu Beichen come to Mo palace? Or tell him... Jane had an accident? Suddenly, there was a harsh brake sound on the phone Then, he heard Gu Beichen''s heavy voice: "is something wrong with Mo''er?" Carney was a little embarrassed. Finally, he answered, "Miss Jane fell down the stairs..." "When?" Gu Beichen almost endured the anger that erupted in an instant and asked with gnashing teeth. "An hour ago!" "Mo Palace should be late at night. How could she roll down the stairs for no reason?" Gu Beichen roared angrily and lost his calmness in an instant. Carney swallowed secretly. "I don''t know the details, but..." his voice was dignified. "Just, Jane Mo kept calling your name, and Qin Shao asked me to call you..." Gu Beichen closed his eyes. He took a deep breath for several times to calm down a little, "I''ll go now." After that, he hung up the phone... Taking advantage of the situation, he started the car and went crazy to the airport. Mo''er, you''ll be fine Xiao Yan will be fine You''ll all be fine, no! Gu Beichen was full of Jane Mo''s panic, fear and despair Even, he could imagine that after that moment, she longed for the look in his eyes. The heart is in pain. The foot pressing the accelerator is also pressed down uncontrollably with the contraction of the heart. The roaring engine sound is full of madness. With dignity, it shuttles under the night of San Francisco The sound of sirens everywhere seems to make the already dignified mood more depressed. Gu Beichen''s indifference and calmness were all disintegrated at this moment Even the always indifferent face is distorted by fear and worry. It takes ten hours to get to Mo palace from here, even if there is no delay Such a time, for Gu Beichen at the moment, it is not only a distance, but also a crazy self reproach that can''t fly to Jian Mo immediately ¡­¡­ The east of the Mo palace is already slightly white. Jane Mo''s life was in danger several times because she fell down the stairs. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the operating room. The atmosphere was dignified and depressing. It was like a black net enveloping him People outside are still waiting and don''t know what''s going on inside. Shi Shaoqin felt that he had never been as scared as at this moment since he became strong He was afraid and didn''t even want to wait for the result, but he didn''t leave He wants to know the situation at the first time. He doesn''t allow her to have anything, no! Shi Shaoqin closed his eyes and tried to restrain his uncontrollable emotion. The door of the operating room was opened and the gynecologist came out Shi Shaoqin looked at the doctor and moved his lips, but he didn''t say anything. Everyone also held their breath, and Shi juechi got up and walked forward regardless of his body "Are they all right?" Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth and trembled. The doctor looked dignified. After looking at Shi Shaoqin, he slowly said, "I''ve done my best..." Chapter 776 "What do you mean?" Stone Jue Chi''s eyes stagnated, and then his pupils gradually spread, "what does this mean?" Everyone''s face became mixed, some worried, some afraid... And some at a loss. Carney ran over from the other end of the corridor at the right time, "Gu Beichen said to rush over immediately..." His words fell, and he immediately felt that something was wrong with the atmosphere. Carney looked at the doctor who had just come out. Because of the angle, he didn''t notice. "How''s Jane Mo?" Carney asked subconsciously. "Say!" A word was squeezed out of Shi Shaoqin''s teeth. The doctor became nervous because of the breath that filled Shi Shaoqin''s body "Miss Jane has been given first aid and her life is not in danger for the time being..." the doctor held his breath and said, "but the child..." Words, did not go on. There is no need to go on Everyone present understood what the doctor wanted to express! Shi juechi only felt that her heart missed beating for several times. Suddenly, her breathing began to be blocked A dull hum of "Oh" came. Shi Jue Chi''s heart couldn''t bear the news. His eyes darkened and he fainted. "Less Jue!" Panic, once again came... Destined for this special night, once again unusual. Shi juechi has been brought into another operating room by Smith and others Shi Shaoqin didn''t move and still stood at the door of the operating room for Jian Mo to have children. The best medical team, the best medical equipment... What''s the use? He still couldn''t save her child... No! "Qin Shao..." J''s face was bitter. He always didn''t care about other people''s life and death. For a moment, his eyes turned red unconsciously. "Ha ha!" Shi Shaoqin sneered at himself and stepped back with vain steps. What does he expect? He also wants to go out, but what? God didn''t give him this chance He thought he could! But, no He can only indulge in the dark world and watch the darkness devour him completely. No one will pull him again... No one will give him a little light. No more J looked at Shi Shaoqin in fear. He had never seen him like this... He felt ethereal, as if he had been evacuated by something. Not angry, not angry, not even cruel. It''s like despair How can Qin Shao despair? It''s impossible! "Qin Shao..." J shouted. Shi Shaoqin smiled again. His beautiful face was like ashes. "I''m not greedy..." he murmured, "I''m really not greedy this time!" J doesn''t know what Shi Shaoqin is talking about. He wants to get close, but he doesn''t dare. Shi Shaoqin stepped back, his eyes fell on the cracked door of the operating room, and his mouth was still murmuring, "I was thinking... When he''s done, maybe I can come out as he said." The self mockery on his face became stronger and stronger. "Mo''er also said that there would be a star belonging to me..." he sneered, "but there will be no more... No more..." The doctor suddenly sympathized with the man in front of him. No matter how strong he was, he was weak in the face of his lover and his children?! The doctor who didn''t know the situation felt heavy in her heart. Since she began to be a doctor, even if her mother and son died on the production table, there are many She thought she was numb. However, seeing the man''s deathly despair, she was so distressed. The door of the operating room suddenly opened "Doctor, the baby suddenly appears!" The eager voice was like the dawn of the night, which made J stare, and Shi Shaoqin looked at it with a dull sight The doctor didn''t say anything. He turned quickly and entered the operating room again In the corridor, only Shi Shaoqin and J. "Qin Shao, what did the woman just say?" J asked with some uncertainty. Shi Shaoqin didn''t answer, because he wasn''t sure J recalled and hurried to Shi Shaoqin''s side, "Qin Shao, did she just say..." Before J finished, Shi Shaoqin opened the door of the operating room and strode in. J was stunned and hurried in. They don''t really enter the operating room, but in the disinfection room outside. There is a glass window that can see the situation in the operating room As time passed, Shi Shaoqin looked at him with a pair of eyes. "J, go and see Jue Chi..." just when the doctor stopped his action, Shi Shaoqin said coldly. "I think..." J just opened his mouth and saw Shi Shaoqin''s sharp eyes turn around. He was so frightened that he immediately shut up, "Oh!" He looked anxiously into his eyes, then turned dissatisfied and left the operating room. The doctor put Xiao Yan into the incubator and handled it in person before he came out "Is the child alive?" Shi Shaoqin asked uncertainly, with tension in his voice. The doctor''s face was still very heavy, "although there is a living body, but... The possibility of surviving is no more than 10 percent!" Such a low survival rate is almost negligible for an early born child. There was something dark in Shi Shaoqin''s eyes, but he didn''t have such a grumpy and uncontrollable mood for the first time. "Qin Shao," the doctor sighed deeply, "the pregnant woman''s physical condition is very weak. When she wakes up..." "Don''t tell her." Shi Shaoqin closed his eyes, then clenched his teeth and said, "just say..." he glanced at the little man in the incubator and said, "I''m dead!" "But..." "Can you guarantee that he will survive?" Shi Shaoqin asked in a low voice. The doctor was stunned and shook his head sadly. "Give her hope and despair?" Shi Shaoqin asked, gnashing his teeth, as if the doctor were his enemy. The doctor is speechless. From the perspective of pregnant women, such hope to despair... Is more cruel. "During this period of time, you have conditioned her body for me..." Shi Shaoqin instantly recovered his usual calm. "The child is still alive. I don''t like anyone except you to know." Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes suddenly narrowed, "I want you to use the greatest possible to keep him!" "I''m a doctor. It''s my duty." The doctor nodded. "What do you need? You don''t need to come to me directly through anyone..." The doctor was surprised, "don''t you need to pass Mr. Mo?" "I don''t understand?" Shi Shaoqin raised his eyebrows in a cold voice. The doctor swallowed secretly and nodded hurriedly, "I know. I won''t fake hands for others." Although she didn''t understand why, she didn''t ask much in the face of Shi Shaoqin, who was in an unstable mood at the moment. Shi Shaoqin left the operating room and walked to Shi juechi step by step The beautiful handsome face regained his habitual look after anger, anxiety and despair. He went to catch Mo''er, even if she was nervous and afraid... How could he not catch it? As if... Her body, at that moment, was going to slide down uncontrollably. Obviously, there is a carpet under your feet. It can''t slip, can it?! Shi Shaoqin suddenly stopped, and a pair of narrow eyes gradually narrowed Chapter 777 Dawn always comes quietly in the dark. The sun seemed unable to penetrate the thick clouds. Gradually, it disappeared again. The haze covered the sky of the whole ink palace. Even people in the ink palace who didn''t know what happened last night could feel the smoke of gunpowder in the air. Morton''s bullet had been taken out and drugged. As long as they don''t have a fatal wound, they won''t really fall down that day. The chef has prepared the ingredients for breakfast, as every morning. "Hey, have you heard?" Someone whispered and asked, "it seems that something big happened last night..." "What?" The man is a little ignorant. "I also seem to hear..." the person who sent the washed vegetables also joined in. "I heard that Jue Shao''s body had another problem. He didn''t leave the operating room until dawn." "Doesn''t it mean it''s okay?" The ignorant man was more and more confused, "how can I give first aid again?" "It seems that Miss Jane fell down the stairs," said the first speaker. "Then Jue Shao''s heart can''t bear it because of worry." "Why did Miss Jane fall down the stairs in the middle of the night?" "Who knows... But I heard that Mosen was also seriously injured." ¡°¡­¡­¡± People who know something are whispering After all, in this almost closed place, there are only these things you can talk about. The Chinese chef made pastry and glanced at the crowd of people from time to time. A faint smile overflowed from the corners of his mouth, but it disappeared in an instant. The ink palace was shrouded in haze, and everyone dared not breathe because of the more and more dignified atmosphere. Shi Shaoqin stood where Jian Mo fell last night, with a lazy gesture. However, the breath from top to bottom forced people''s hearts. Probe your hand and gently stroke your slender fingers across the railing There was no trace on the spotless handrail. "Qin Shao..." J panted and ran over, "child, how''s the child?" Shi Shaoqin ignored him and just gently rubbed the handrail of the stairs with his fingers "Qin Shao?" J asked with some dissatisfaction. Shi Shaoqin slowly withdrew his hand, "dead." There was no emotion in his indifferent voice, just like him in the past... Life to him was like an ant. J widened his eyes in an instant, "but... Doesn''t it mean there is a living body?" Shi Shaoqin glanced at J lightly without explanation. He just withdrew his sight coldly and walked forward with his hands in his pockets, "how''s Jue Chi?" "Jue Shao is all right..." J frowned anxiously. "The baby is dead. What should Jane do?" Although he doesn''t care about the child very much, Jane Mo seems to care If the baby dies, will Jane Mo be very sad? Shi Shaoqin stopped and looked forward with deep eyes. For a moment, he lost his focus. J''s mouth moved back and forth, and he wanted to say something, but I don''t know why... Looking at the smell that filled Shi Shaoqin''s body, he always felt sad. Sadness?! J frowned and looked at Shi Shaoqin again... But there was no emotion except indifference. It was as if what he had just felt was false. "Stop all the supplies in the Mo palace..." Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "no one is allowed to go in and out of the Mo palace these days." "Can hear Kani say that Gu Beichen is coming." J tilted his head and said, "you made it." Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, and his voice became more and more indifferent, "seal!" J twitched at the corner of his mouth, but he still answered. He watched Shi Shaoqin lift his feet and move on... He didn''t follow, just looked at his back. "How does it feel weird?!" J murmured, but he didn''t think much. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen arrived at the airport. All the channels leading to the Mo palace were blocked by Luo Songxian''s forces. In San Francisco, Luo Songxian''s influence can not be ignored. Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone and called Long Xiao. "I''m at San Francisco Airport now. I''m going to Mo palace." "What happened?" The voice of the Dragon owl is always indifferent. "Mo''er may have an accident..." Gu Beichen''s voice sounded very calm, but the deep and bottomless ink pupil betrayed him. The Dragon owl was a little silent and just opened his mouth: "just got the news, the ink palace blocked the entrance and exit." Gu Beichen suddenly looked cold, and his sight showed a touch of horror. He hung up the phone. Changing hands, he dialed Shi Shaoqin''s phone In due time, Shi Shaoqin just walked to the door of Jian Mo''s room, took out his mobile phone, saw that it was Gu Beichen, calmly picked it up and put it in his ear. "Shi Shaoqin..." the voice of gritting his teeth came with a forbearance of rage, "how''s Mo''er and the child?" "OK..." Shi Shaoqin said faintly. "I want to see her!" Don''t ignore the north corner. "Are you done?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, "as if... No!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips spilled a touch of cold hiss, "do you want to tell me... I can''t see her until it''s solved?" "This is a condition!" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was full of evil cunning under indifference. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gathered slightly, "are you forcing me?" In the cold voice, there is a ruthless Different from the indifference in the face of Luo Songxian just now, it has become a beast ready to attack. Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes and smiled, "I force you... So what?!" Silence. Long silence! Gu Beichen didn''t speak, and Shi Shaoqin didn''t hang up Until, after a long time, when Shi Shaoqin looked at the door of the bedroom and saw deeper and deeper... There was a sound of "dududududududududui" in it. Slowly dropped his hand, and Shi Shaoqin gently hooked the corner of his beautiful mouth. Some people may be born in darkness... Why covet that little light?! Slowly open the door of the bedroom. It''s not very bright in the dark weather. "Qin Shao..." Xiao Siyue saw Shi Shaoqin coming in and got up quickly. "You go down." Xiao Siyue was a little worried. Jian Mo glanced at her, gave her a lip, finally nodded, got up and left Just, at the moment of closing the door, she couldn''t help looking at the man inside. He walked slowly to the bedside, looked at Jane Mo''s face for a long time, and then sat down at the bedside. Slender fingers are like works of art, white and distinct. Fingers gently across Jian Mo''s cheek. It''s so gentle... It''s so gentle that people mistakenly think he''s Shi Jue Chi. Xiao Siyue didn''t dare to continue to look. He gently closed the door. He always felt strange in the air. "Mo''er..." Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s pale, bloodless face, "you''ll hate me, won''t you?" In the empty room, no one could answer him... Because of this, it became more treacherous. "Hate..." Shi Shaoqin said softly, "I shouldn''t have been greedy for light, otherwise, you won''t have a chance to hate me, will you?!" Chapter 778 The bedroom is filled with sadness But I don''t know whether it''s from Jian Mo or from Shi Shaoqin. "Mom..." "Mom... Wuwu... Mom..." "HMM..." Jian Mo''s forehead was completely sweating. She seemed to be trapped in a nightmare and couldn''t help herself, "HMM..." The sad sound of pain, with the sadness of forbearance, Jian Mo''s hand gradually clenched up and twisted the sheet. In the dream, a child slowly retreated. He stretched out his little hand, looked at her crying, shouted her ''mother'', wanted her... But he could only retreat. Jane Mo''s mouth was tight. She wanted to come forward and hold the child, but the child disappeared when her hand touched it "Hmm..." Jian Mo groaned bitterly, and the sweat on her forehead became more and more fine. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window with his hands in his pockets. The voice behind him didn''t seem to be heard. However, as Jian Mo''s groans became more and more frequent, his sight became deeper and deeper "Ah --" After a scream, followed by a pain chant of ''Oh''. Jane Mo suddenly wanted to get up, but she fell back because of the pain in her stomach Shi Shaoqin turned slowly and looked at Jian Mo''s pain indifferently. He didn''t intend to come forward. Jane Mo''s whole body broke into a cold sweat because of the painful tearing. She bit her teeth, and her already pale face became more and more bloodless. The lower abdomen is almost flat. Even without feeling it, Jian Mo knows that Xiao Yan is no longer in her stomach. "Where''s the child?" Jian Mo''s voice was trembling. She looked at Shi Shaoqin''s eyes and prayed. "Dead..." the indifferent voice came without any emotion. Jane Mo''s eyelashes trembled. "You... What did you say?" "The child was dead when he took it out." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was still indifferent, without the slightest temperature, "or do you think he can live under such circumstances?" ''shua '', Jian Mo''s tears burst out uncontrollably. "Shi Shaoqin, what are you talking about?" Jane Mo was just as crazy. She stood up regardless of the wound on her abdomen and shouted, "you lied to me... You lied to me... Where''s my child? Where''s my child? You give me my child back... Ah -" Shi Shaoqin looked coldly at Jian Mo''s instant collapse, and even the hatred under the crazy mourning at the bottom of his eyes. The corners of his mouth gently recalled, "dead, do I still keep it as a specimen?" "Ah --" The crazy and sharp cry seemed to cut a hole in the sky. The sound of "Ka" fell, followed by a deafening roar... Pouring rain, crazy and falling. "You return my child... Ah..." Jane Mo threw things on the bed like crazy. Her eyes were scarlet and her tears couldn''t be controlled. The stitched wound on the abdomen has cracked, and tears and blood... Fill the whole bedroom. Shi Shaoqin was indifferent and just looked at him coldly, "it''s just a child. Don''t you have another one?!" Jian Mo was stunned for a moment, tears gushed out uncontrollably, and her face was blurred to embarrassment. Just as Shi Shaoqin''s words fell, she seemed to have been hit by someone. Jane Mo''s head was empty in an instant "What do you want to do?" The sadness at the bottom of Jane Mo''s eyes was covered by fear. "What do I want to do, don''t you think?" The voice of Shi Shaoqin''s light Yi came. He didn''t seem to expect Jian Mo to answer, but sneered. "Ah --" The cry of pain overflowed Jian Mo''s throat, which was a kind of despair that wanted to die As if, to this world, completely disappointed. "Ah... Ah..." Jane Mo has no way to overflow a complete note. She can only vent by yelling like this. The blood on the wound has filled the air with blood. Jane Mo couldn''t feel the pain. She kept yelling. Her eyes were filled with grief and remorse Shi Shaoqin''s eyes became more and more profound. He looked at Jian Mo like this. He looked cold and indescribable... But why did he feel that he was about to be unable to breathe?! "Shi Shaoqin..." Jian Mo looked at Shi Shaoqin vaguely with tears. At the last moment, hate was clearly written on her face, "I hate you... I hate..." The last words were not spoken. Jane Mo only felt that she was black in front of her eyes. The whole person was like catkins, and fell down feebly. Under the rainstorm, Mo palace fell into a dignified panic again. The doctors that Shi Shaoqin found one by one felt that if he went on like this... He didn''t need to do anything at all. They didn''t die because of pressure, but also because they were busy with surgery. Time, a little bit of the past The mood of everyone in the Mo palace is as dark as the weather. J plays with the game handle and his mouth in all kinds of boredom. He has no interest in anything. The door of the audio-visual room was pushed open. At the right time, a thunderbolt exploded. J was startled. He saw that it was Shi Shaoqin and breathed a long sigh. "Qin Shao..." "Tune out the video at Jane Mo''s door last night..." "Oh!" J answered the voice, took the notebook, linked the video device, and began to adjust the video, "I was bored at that time. I had seen it, and there was nothing different." "No one?" Shi Shaoqin looked at the big screen indifferently. "No..." J skimmed. "I saw the docking trace. If someone moves his hands and feet on the video, I can see it." Shi Shaoqin didn''t answer. "Of course, if you are a master, it''s not easy..." J shrugged, "but no one can escape me in the ink palace." Shi Shaoqin glanced at J lightly and turned away without saying anything Last night, she put something that would not hurt her body in the milk Jane Mo drank, which would make her sleep more soundly. Even if there is something moving over there, she shouldn''t wake up so easily "Qin Shao!" Shi Shaoqin stopped and glanced back slightly J hesitated and asked, "is the child really dead?" Shi Shaoqin took back his sight and didn''t answer... He lifted his steps and walked out. J sighed heavily, and Shi Shaoqin heard a murmur from behind: "Jane Mo is so poor... She seems to love the child very much." Under the words, it is not difficult to hear that he is a little lonely. However, at this time, who can notice his subconscious greed and extravagance?! That, a child''s greed for his mother! Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the incubator and looked at the motionless little things inside. His eyes became more and more profound If it weren''t for the instrument, I couldn''t feel his life at all. "Qin Shao..." the doctor listed what he needed on a piece of paper and handed it to Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin folded what he didn''t see and put it in his pocket. One morning, she didn''t know how the man did it Anyway, a child was dealt with, and this child exists here. The doctor heard some rumors that the man didn''t want the child... That''s why there was an accident last night. But it doesn''t seem to be. "These things are ready for you," Shi Shaoqin''s quiet voice suddenly came, "can his hope of survival be increased?" Chapter 779 The doctor shook his head. "Maybe you can only live a few more days, maybe you can live a few more months..." she paused. "Who knows?!" Today, the child''s hope of survival is almost zero... Doing so much is just continuing day by day. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were a little dark and looked at the doctor with a few sharp eyes. The doctor ''cluttered'' in his heart and swallowed with a secret grin, "that... I''m telling the truth." She twitched at the corner of her mouth. "You said, the greater the hope, the greater the disappointment." Shi Shaoqin converged his sight, resumed his usual indifference, and turned away without saying anything. The doctor breathed out and suddenly mentioned the heart of his throat. After Shi Shaoqin left, he slowly fell back to his chest. It''s raining heavily. It''s been raining. Jane Mo''s situation, in addition to causing great damage to the body, is not as bad as expected Jane Mo looked at the three people around the room. She didn''t know any of them except Xiao Siyue. It is said that Shi Shaoqin found her a person to take care of her baby. "Miss Jane, have something to eat?" Someone brought the stewed soup. Jane Mo didn''t move and looked at the front with dull eyes... Not sad or happy, as if she were an empty shell without soul. Xiao Siyue looked at the person in front of her, who was full of sunshine and could make people feel hope... After the child left her body, she took away all her happiness. It rained all day, and the ink palace was filled with the smell of mud. Shi Shaoqin stood at the gate of the ancient castle and looked at the messy sunflower field after being watered by the heavy rain. A touch of self mockery overflowed from the depths of his eyes. "Many of them have been beaten out..." J grabbed a handful of soil with some pain and said angrily. Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes and looked at the sunflower seeds on the black soil. The beautiful corners of his mouth laughed at himself. The sunshine doesn''t belong to him after all, never... It''s not that he doesn''t work hard. Turning around, Shi Shaoqin said indifferently, "let people clean up here..." "Ah?!" Some of J didn''t react. His hands were sticky and looked funny. Shi Shaoqin didn''t say it again. He knew that J heard it. J glanced at Shi Shaoqin''s back and muttered, "even if there may be many that can''t live, there are still some that can live..." he snorted discontentedly, "and you can plant again!" Shi Shaoqin stopped, glanced back slightly, and said coldly, "I hate the smell of soil!" J''s mouth twitched, and even his uncontrollable heart trembled because of Shi Shaoqin''s indifferent words. He was reluctant to look at the hard planted sunflower seeds. Some of them were overturned by the rain, and there were signs of germination... What a pity. Shi Shaoqin returned to his study without the existence of Jianmo. The whole castle was even more depressing than before. Morson is still recovering from injury. All kinds of information flow into his ears without blocking "It seems that Jane Mo and Qin Shao have lost their temper. Anyway, Qin Shao is not as good to her as before... He doesn''t even see her." "Is Gu Beichen here?" Asked Morson. "No... Qin Shao sealed the Mo palace and prohibited access." A sneer came from the corner of Morson''s mouth and looked at the person who spoke to him, "as if you said a lot?" "Huh?" The man didn''t react. "From before the accident to now, you can always know exactly what I want to know..." Morson''s voice was cold, "isn''t it?" The man trembled and shook his head quickly. Mo Sen sneered and didn''t say anything more, but restrained his eyes. "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." "Qin Shao asked you to find him in the study." Mosen answered and got into the wheelchair without anyone''s help "Qin Shao, are you looking for me?" Asked Morson respectfully. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window, his tall figure was drowned by the curtain, and he was as cold as ever in the dark. "There are his people in the Mo palace," Shi Shaoqin turned around and looked at Mosen indifferently. He didn''t care about his injury at all. "All of them will be cleaned up in three days." Morson''s face was a little shocked. "Are you sure?" "Are you questioning me?" Shi Shaoqin did not answer the question. "Dare not!" Mosen lowered his eyes. "I''ll do it now." Shi Shaoqin ignored Mosen, turned around again and looked at the faint light outside the gap of the curtain Mosen backed out of the wheelchair, but looking at Shi Shaoqin''s back, his eyes were filled with complexity. After this time, Jian Mo can no longer have a good impression of Qin Shao Even between Qin Shao and Gu Beichen, there is no possibility of repair. Morson''s mouth was filled with a strange smile, and his eyes were cold and ruthless. The mobile phone was shaking on the huge desk. Shi Shaoqin turned around, glanced lightly and picked up the call "Qin Shao, not as perfect as expected..." There were no waves on Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful face. "People live, there is a gap. Chen has always been very clear." "Gu Beichen asked the Dragon owl''s people to send the information to the Interpol branch yesterday, and there was no one..." the man pondered and said in the end, "his whereabouts are still unclear." Shi Shaoqin frowned faintly, "who handled the San Francisco affair?" "It looks like the man of the Dragon owl," the man replied, "but the technique is like Gu Beichen''s." People are not there, but they are handled. There is only one possibility... In advance, he has calculated everything. Even if there are accidents, things can only develop according to what he wants. Luo Songxian Shi Shaoqin hung up and his eyes were gloomy. Taking San Francisco as the starting point, the news spread rapidly like the transit of locusts Luo Songxian, a philanthropist, listed several proven criminal acts. The most frightening thing is that he even has a research laboratory for the study of biological and chemical weapons and a special entertainment place for the rich and dignitaries. The relationship between men and women in it is filthy. Social morality and international condemnation have overwhelmed Interpol and the media Luo Songxian was caught on the spot by the waiting international special police on the way to abscond. But even so, the branches and leaves involving the big people of all parties still saved Luo Songxian''s life. If you live, you have a chance to come back At this moment, Luo Songxian with such thoughts doesn''t know that his nightmare of atonement begins when he wants to live. At the same time, the stock market, which had been suppressed by the emperor, began to recover at the opening of the new day in Los Angeles. The investors who had been worried all the time finally relaxed their breath on the snowy morning Shi Shaoqin looked at the news from all sides, took out his mobile phone and dialed Gu Beichen But I can''t get through! He didn''t expect to get through. If he wanted to see Jian Mo, he had to finish the third thing. "Dong Dong!" The knock came at the right time Shi Shaoqin''s indifferent convergent eyes answered. Someone opened the door and the light swept in from the outside. At the same time, the voice of the visitor said eagerly, "Qin Shao, Gu Beichen is coming!" Chapter 780 Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly. After two or three seconds, he made a sound, "Chen is coming?" "Yes!" The visitor swallowed uncontrollably and secretly, and the cells of the whole body became nervous. Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes and slightly hooked the corner of his beautiful mouth. His voice was still faint: "you mean... Under the blockade of the ink palace, someone can enter?" There was a thin smile in the light voice. It''s just that such a smile is too penetrating. The visitor swallowed nervously again, "yes... Yes!" He dared not look at Shi Shaoqin and hung his head. "It''s from... From the back mountain." Mo palace is located on three sides surrounded by the sea, backed by a primitive forest. That''s the only place where you can see green in Mo palace However, there are wild animals, all of which are stopped by the high power grid. That is to say... If you want to come from the inside and avoid the beast, you can''t enter the range of Mo palace. The only one who can come in is the air! But how could Shi Shaoqin leave such a big loophole to let others disintegrate the defense of Mo palace? Strong radio interference, all electronic flying objects in the air, it is impossible to enter from the back mountain "Oh..." Shi Shaoqin sneered and raised his eyes. The visitor felt like a sharp blade, but in an instant, he was too late "Qin... Qin Shao..." Shi Shaoqin got up slowly, didn''t speak, just walked out. The man subconsciously stepped aside. When Shi Shaoqin came out of his study, he followed him timidly... Grinning secretly. Why was Mosen injured at this moment. Otherwise, such a report will not turn to him. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen glanced at the instrument panel of the helicopter that had failed due to the jammer, coldly took back his sight and got off the helicopter After so many years of separation, he set foot here again. He was not in the complex mood he imagined. On his cold face, there was nothing else but indifference. "I really want to know," awei copied his hands into the black combat pants pocket and looked at Gu Beichen with evil eyes, "how did you come in through such strong interference..." Gu Beichen glanced at him indifferently, "I don''t talk about technical problems with people with insufficient IQ." "...." awei twitched at the corners of his mouth, and was aroused by Gu Beichen. "Do you want to fight again?" "Yes?" Gu Beichen said softly. In his voice, there was an undisguised contempt. The sound of "Gaga" came. Awei was just a moment, and his body was already filled with a cruel smell. Gu Beichen didn''t move either, but leaned lazily on the helicopter From the moment he knew that the Mo palace was sealed, he knew that not only Luo Songxian didn''t want him to come, but also Shi Shaoqin didn''t want him to come. Tossed around a few places, and then got a helicopter to find a way to anti-jamming the radio in Houshan He didn''t sleep for two days. Just passed the sky and almost crashed several times Nervous and dignified, even if he has more spirit, his body has been overdrawn. "I don''t want to fight with you," Gu Beichen''s voice was so indifferent that he couldn''t hear a trace of fatigue. "Let Shi Shaoqin come over..." When he arrived at the boundary of the Mo palace, he didn''t seem to be in such a hurry... Of course, it''s no use worrying. The eagle''s eyes crossed dozens of people in front of him. After Gu Beichen''s indifferent convergence of sight, he slightly lowered his eyes. When he was full of energy, awei was difficult enough... He probably didn''t see Mo''er, so he got down first. Awei sneered, "you are still the same as in the past, arrogant in other people''s chassis!" "That''s because I have this arrogant capital..." Gu Beichen''s voice was faint, but when he raised his eyes slightly, a sharp light burst out from the depths of the ink pupil. That memory is the darkness he is most reluctant to touch. Even though he knew that Mo''er had an accident, he couldn''t wait to come over... He also thought that stepping here again would be a heavy burden under unbearable memory. But, no! At this moment, he has never had peace Just because Mo''er is in this land, he has nothing to face in the past. Awei hated Gu Beichen''s expression. From the past to the present, he thought he had found someone who gave his back to the other party wholeheartedly But in the end, the man left! Walk so natural and unrestrained, even now live so arrogant! Awei''s fist is getting tighter and tighter, and his joints have turned white because of too much force. Just when his mood was at an edge, the atmosphere suddenly condensed and deepened on the huge flat ground Almost no need to think about it. Awei knew that Qin was few. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes have passed through awei and fell on the man walking far away Casual suit pants, light blue shirt... In the not too warm sun, people always feel that Shi Shaoqin is out of tune with the gloomy scene at the moment. Compared with Shi Shaoqin''s cleanliness, it is obvious that Gu Beichen is a little sloppy at the moment. "Long time no see..." Shi Shaoqin stopped ten meters in front of Gu Beichen, and his voice was clear and moist. "Long time no see", Gu Beichen was very clear that what Shi Shaoqin said was not true Instead, he left the Mo Palace at the beginning and set foot here again. Gu Beichen stood up. Unlike other people''s fear of Shi Shaoqin, he faded his stubbornness in his youth. Now he doesn''t lose a penny in momentum. "Where''s Mo''er?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Shi Shaoqin and asked. Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes and smiled. "I thought you would ask the child first..." he paused. He raised his eyes, and the bottom of his eyes was cold. "After all... People, but rolling down the stairs?!" Gu beichenjun''s face was immediately stained with a layer of haze. "I asked..." Gu Beichen''s voice was low for a few minutes, with a dangerous breath, "where''s Mo''er?!" Shi Shaoqin''s pretty lips slightly raised a sarcastic arc, "only care about women... Children don''t care at all?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but everyone could clearly feel the anger filled with him "I thought," Shi Shaoqin narrowed his narrow eyes lightly, with an unspeakable complex breath in his voice, "you''ll ask the child first!" "I ask you how Mo''er is?" Gu Beichen''s voice sank for a few minutes. It''s not that he doesn''t care about children. Even when he is ridiculed by Shi Shaoqin, his heart is like being cut with a blunt knife From the moment he received Carney''s call, he had prepared for the worst. He didn''t ask, didn''t he want to know, or was he afraid to know? He doesn''t know He just thought, if Mo''er is OK, then... Xiao Yan should be safe, isn''t he?! "She''s not dead anyway..." in Shi Shaoqin''s voice, there was a bloodthirsty indifference, "but, child..." He paused deliberately and looked at something cracking on Gu Beichen''s face. Then he slowly said, "dead!" As soon as the voice fell, Gu Beichen rushed forward just before everyone reacted As the "bang" fell, everyone, including awei, widened their eyes. The smell of fishy and sweet in the corners of the mouth spread through the taste buds, and there was a burning tingling on the cheeks. Shi Shaoqin''s expression remained unchanged, but his eyes were as dark as ink. "You''re really rude about this punch..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was gentle and calm, but everyone heard Yun''s anger. The calmness on Gu Beichen''s face had disintegrated, and his eagle eyes were rendered by the rage under madness, "Shi Shaoqin, you broke the agreement..." Gritting his teeth, Gu Beichen hit Shi Shaoqin again Chapter 781 No one dares to come forward, including awei. Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin, there is a fierce wind and mutual anger under the fists and feet you come and go No one here, except awei, has seen Shi Shaoqin do it. Just rumors His skill is so powerful that he has few opponents. But that''s just a rumor Now, looking at you coming and going with Gu Beichen, Gu Beichen can''t get any advantage except the first punch. "Beat me and I''ll let you take Jane Mo away!" Shi Shaoqin''s voice came coldly, "lost, go and do the third thing!" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but his fierce eyes were murderous. When he was in Mo palace for three months, he lived a non-human life... Because he wanted to live, he had to keep making himself strong. When he left Mo palace and was in England, he did many of the darkest things in the world If he wants to live, he keeps letting himself overcome his fear of darkness. People only know that Gu Beichen, who has been kidnapped, has changed from a sunshine boy to a decisive emperor President How many people did he know in exchange for blood? His fists are becoming more and more fierce. Shi Shaoqin has no ease to start Without any tricks, all Gu Beichen''s attacks are full of a deadly move. "I''ll give Mo''er to you, Shi Shaoqin. That''s how you protect her..." Gu Beichen roared wildly, and the attack became more and more fierce. "I just promise she''s alive, don''t I?" "But you killed our child..." Gu Beichen lost his cool completely while making a sound. Shi Shaoqin had a little difficulty in blocking Gu Beichen. "From beginning to end, I didn''t say that the children were in my charge." "Er..." After Gu Beichen gave a beast like low roar, he crazily clenched his teeth and roared, "do you know what Mo''er''s feelings for this child are?" "Shi Shaoqin, do you know what the loss of this child... Means to her?" "Xiao Yan''s existence, how much did it take to get to the present... But when Xiao Yan was one month old, you let Mo''er lose him..." "Ah --" With the attack, Gu Beichen''s roar announced that he was becoming more and more irrational and even calm. "You''re killing Mo''er -" At the same time of the last roar, Gu Beichen gasped to Shi Shaoqin''s chest. I saw Shi Shaoqin cross his arms in front, blocking the injury, but he stepped back a few steps Gu Beichen did not continue to attack, but looked at Shi Shaoqin with scarlet eyes. Shi Shaoqin didn''t look like he had just had a fight. He stood there calmly. On his beautiful face, he didn''t look at all except that he was slightly red and swollen by the fist. However, under such a calm and indifferent expression, no one can see that his heart has been screwed together Originally, he will be heartache! It''s like he''s never lived before Gu Beichen''s every word and a knife poked into his heart, and then thought of Jian Mo''s madness because he knew that the child was "dead" It was like a handful of salt sprinkled on the wound of his heart. "Don''t say you can''t keep up with your physical function at the moment," he said, indifferently without any emotion. "Even if you''re good, you can''t beat me." In the faint words, there seemed to be ridicule. Gu Beichen''s hand suddenly clenched, "get out of the way, I have to see her today!" If you have nothing to say, the arrogance of freedom Even if it falls in the downwind, even in Shi Shaoqin''s territory... Standing in the deepest memory, the darkest place. At the moment, Gu Beichen was filled with awe inspiring. "I can let you see her," Shi Shaoqin''s voice was always flat. "The third thing is wrong... Chen, you know." The atmosphere becomes condensed in the dignified. In the air, the treacherous floating is so heavy that everyone can''t breathe. "She..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice, cold and slow, "will die!" ¡­¡­ Jian Mo was half lying in bed. Xiao Siyue took the stewed soup and said, "Miss Jane, how much to eat..." Jane Mo didn''t speak. Her eyes fell out of the window without focus. It was like her world was at the other end. Xiao Siyue sighed and handed the spoon to Jian Mo''s lips... But she didn''t respond at all. "Miss Jane doesn''t eat like this. She can''t just rely on the infusion of nutrient solution..." said the sister-in-law, who served the baby. Xiao Siyue glanced at her and then looked at Jian mo... When she reached her mouth, she couldn''t say a word. Without children, Jane Mo''s life seems empty She always has a feeling that Jane Mo is punishing herself. She has lost her faith in living. The door was pushed open at the right time. Yuesao and Xiao Siyue subconsciously looked Gu Beichen stood there and put his hand on the doorknob after handling the blood a little. "Gu Beichen?!" Xiao Siyue shouted in surprise. Jane Mo, who had not responded all the time, trembled slightly under her eyelashes, and then... Looked over slowly and mechanically. When the eagle eyes of Beichen looked at the hollow eyes, as if the eyes of the soul were lost, the heart was twisted like fried dough twist. Such pain is a little suffocation. Xiao Siyue put down the bowl and got up, motioning sister-in-law Yue to leave When passing by Gu Beichen, her lips moved and wanted to say something, but she found that she seemed to know nothing about the cause and effect. But for a moment, there was no one in such a big bedroom except Gu Beichen and Jian mo. Gu Beichen didn''t move, but looked at Jian Mo''s eyes... Until she withdrew her eyes indifferently and looked out of the window again. It''s like he''s in the bottom of her eyes, just a virtual shadow. Something pierced into his heart. Gu Beichen tightened his hand holding the doorknob, then loosened it and walked forward Gu Beichen sat down beside Jian Mo, his hoarse voice spilled over his thin lips, "Mo''er..." Jane Mo didn''t respond. She kept looking out of the window... I don''t know what she was looking at. Gu Beichen closed his eyes and thought about seeing her in thousands of ways. Finally, there was only one. What does Xiao Yan mean to Mo''er? That''s the reason why she doesn''t want to leave him. That''s her company when she has "amnesia", and it''s... The hope under fear. Hope is gone Is she only a body now? Gu Beichen was suddenly afraid. His long arm leaned forward and gently took her weak body into his arms "Mo''er, I''m coming..." Gu Beichen closed his eyes and collected the sadness from her body. He didn''t want to aggravate her sadness. "I''m sorry, I''m not by your side!" Jane Mo let Gu Beichen hold her and gently fanned her eyelashes "Mo''er..." A low and hoarse voice with a familiar smell Jian Mo''s eyelashes began to tremble. Under Gu Beichen''s soft call of gritting his teeth again, tears... Just like the breakwater, the silent ''Susu'' fell down Chapter 782 Just now, Jane Mo, who thought she was an illusion, gradually had a practical feeling when her body was taken into Gu Beichen''s chest. Tears wet Gu Beichen''s shoulders like this. He couldn''t say a word to comfort him at the moment. Because he knows her, so she is sad, sad, sad... He knows. Because he knows... He can only hold her quietly. She blamed herself for losing Xiao Yan, and he... Isn''t he guilty? Even if there are thousands of reasons, they are not enough to make up for the pain of losing Xiaoyan. "Wuwu..." From silent tears, Jian Mo gradually choked out... Until she burst into tears. Under the familiar breath, she vented her emotions heartily. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen''s heart broke into pieces at this moment, bonded with Jian Mo''s tears. Even the saltiness of tears stung all his nerves. "Ah..." Jian Mo''s hand became a fist and kept beating Gu Beichen''s back. She cried loudly and vented all the accumulated emotions at this moment, "ah Chen... What to do... What to do... I lost Xiao Yan... Ah..." Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes, held Jian Mo''s arm, and gradually tightened up But even so, he subconsciously avoided the wound in her abdomen. Just, with such strength, tell her... He''s by her side. "I''m sorry..." Gu Beichen''s voice was filled with solemn sadness. "I shouldn''t have put you beside him... It''s all me. If it weren''t for me, Xiao Yan wouldn''t leave us!" "Ah..." Jian Mo cried hoarsely. She didn''t listen to Gu Beichen''s words. "It''s all me... It''s all me. It''s all me... If it weren''t for me... Xiao Yan wouldn''t leave me... Sobbing..." Gu Beichen gently rubbed Jian Mo''s neck with the tip of his nose, "it''s not... Mo''er, it''s not like this..." "Wuwu..." "It''s not your fault. You''ve always protected him well..." Gu Beichen''s voice began to choke. "I can only blame that I''m not strong enough... I''m not able to protect you and Xiaoyan." Gu Beichen, who has always been full of ups and downs, felt incompetent at this moment Different from the darkness in the ink palace, this is the heaviest sadness that falls on my heart. "Wuwu..." the tears in Jian Mo''s eyes kept pouring out, and the whole world was so vague that she couldn''t control her grief. "It''s all my fault, it''s my fault... Xiao Yan is punishing me... It''s all my fault..." If it weren''t for her, Xiao Yan wouldn''t leave... No! Listening to Jian Mo''s remorse, Gu Beichen was completely afraid It is a kind of life without love under despair. His Mo''er has always been strong. "It''s all me... Um..." Gu Beichen held Jian Mo''s cheek with one hand, kissed her tears and stuck them on her lips He didn''t want her to blame herself like this, and he didn''t want her to punish herself in despair. Tears stained the thick eyelashes. Gu Beichen closed his eyes, but he didn''t know whether it was her tears or his! The cry of "Wuwu" is sadness or despair... Or the heartache under broken heart. At this moment, he feels her pain. Shi Shaoqin stood at the door. He was alone in the empty corridor. The door of the bedroom was not closed. He looked at the two people inside clearly and couldn''t see the bottom A touch of self mockery crossed the bottom of his eyes, and Shi Shaoqin coldly restrained his eyes and turned around. At the end of the corridor, Shi juechi was sitting in a wheelchair. The light set off his already pale face and made it more and more bloodless. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and walked forward calmly "If Gu Beichen wants to take her away, will you let go?" Shi juechi asked weakly as Shi Shaoqin passed him. "There''s one more thing he didn''t do." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was cold. Shi Jue Chi glanced at him, "do you have to kill Mo Mo... Then let Gu Beichen sink with you, and you''ll be happy?" "Otherwise?" Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes and smiled, "from the beginning, it''s my purpose, isn''t it?" "Shaoqin!" Stone Jue Chi grits his teeth. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes slightly lifted and fell in front, "in this world... Someone must fall to set off beauty, isn''t it?" The quiet words have a profound meaning that people can''t hear. Shi Shaoqin ignored Shi Jue Chi, raised his steps and walked forward with indifference It seems that the world has never changed in his eyes. Shi juechi ran after him in a wheelchair. "Shaoqin, is it right that I''m dead and all this can end?" He gritted his teeth. "Originally, I caused all this!" Shi Shaoqin stopped, and the corners of his pretty mouth gently hooked, "this world is used to subvert... Jue Chi, don''t threaten me with your death." If it''s cold, it''s heartless. "If you die..." Shi Shaoqin sneered, his cold voice slowly overflowing his beautiful lips, "I will only let more people bury you!" In the empty corridor, there are still echoes of Shi Shaoqin''s words Shi juechi looked at his back until it disappeared into his eyes. It''s not his coldness, nor his bloodthirsty... But Shi juechi thinks he has changed. Such a change, obviously colder, but let him smell a breath of self destruction Shi juechi was frightened by his own thoughts and stayed in place for a long time, unable to recover. In the air, there is also the sobbing sound of Jian mo She was already lying on the bed by Gu Beichen. Her red and swollen eyes looked vaguely at Gu Beichen close at hand. "Ah Chen, I want to see Xiao Yan..." Jian Mo''s mood seems to be a little calmer, but her voice is badly wronged, "but Shi Shaoqin won''t let me see." Gu Beichen kissed the tears on Jian Mo''s cheek, "Mo''er... Don''t torture yourself, okay?" Jane Mo''s eyelashes trembled again. In her voice, she caught a strong sadness again. "I''m sorry..." she sucked her nose, "I don''t want you to be sad, I just..." "You don''t need to say anything," Gu Beichen said with scarlet eyes and moist fundus. "Mo''er, how big is your heart? How can you worry so much Jane Mo kept sucking her nose, as if only in this way can she restrain her sadness "Shall I take you?" Looking at Jian Mo''s forbearance, Gu Beichen felt numb with heart pain. "Huh?" Jane Mo looked at him blankly. "I''ll take you away and get you out of here..." Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo''s cheek and almost worshipped, "when your wound heals, I''ll take you out of here, okay?" Chapter 783 "I want to go now..." Jian Mo''s voice choked. "Go now, I don''t want to be here... No." She said, her nose could not help being sour again, and her red and swollen eyes were full of tears again. Gu Beichen kissed her gently and kissed away all the overflow tears The salty and astringent taste spreads in the taste buds. It is unclear whether it is deep pain or heartache under sadness. "A few more days, huh?" The low and magnetic voice was slightly hoarse. Gu Beichen gently advised, "your body is not suitable for fatigue... I will stay here and don''t let you alone." Jane Mo''s mouth moved back and forth. She bit her lip and her nose muttered more and more, "but..." "With me, I will always be with you..." Gu Beichen said softly in Jian Mo''s ear, "don''t leave you, okay?" Jane Mo''s lips were tightly clenched. She felt the hard to hide sadness on her handsome face, and her heart suddenly hurt. Always calm and self-contained, he lost their children, but he had to try to comfort her "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo sobbed. "I am!" Gu Beichen gently answered the voice and slightly raised Jun''s face. The eagle''s eyes were deep but gently looking at her. With her eyes red, Jane Mo raised her hand slowly The trembling finger abdomen gently crossed the corners of the man''s eyes, where it was a little wet. She didn''t know whether he was contaminated with her grief or the product of her own grief... But whatever it was, it suffocated her heart. "You must be sad too..." Jane Mo swallowed her sadness. "I shouldn''t have made you more sad..." "Mo''er!" Gu Beichen''s heart was aching. No matter how sad he is, how can he be sad about her?! The kind of pain that comes from the mother''s loss of her child can''t be compared with the pain that he can''t feel? Lips and tongues, fiercely staggered together Your injury, I would like to suffer with you. Jane Mo closed her eyes and only wanted to sink under Gu Beichen''s slightly vented lips... Bear it with him. ¡­¡­ In the dark room, only a faint glimmer of light came in Just like people hiding in the dark, they are always greedy for a little light, but afraid of contact. "Dong Dong!" Shi Shaoqin ignored the knock at the door "Dong Dong..." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, and answered in the end. The door was pushed open and j frowned slightly... He didn''t like the darkness very much, especially after contacting Jane Mo these days. "Qin Shao, when Gu Beichen comes, will you let him be alone with Jane Mo?" J said discontentedly. He had closed the door and went to the sofa to sit down. Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but glanced at him lightly J tooted his mouth. "I just heard... He said he would take Jane Mo away!" Shi Shaoqin still didn''t speak, but faintly took back his sight. "Qin Shao..." J was dissatisfied when he saw that Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak. "He can take it if he wants to?" The voice of light Yi overflowed the beautiful lips, with a touch of coldness under light ridicule. J glanced, "but he can come..." "Someone outside provided him with equipment to come." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was faint, "go?" With another sneer, Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes slightly, "I don''t agree. Who can leave the Mo palace?" "Gu Beichen left that year..." J said with some competition. "..." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, and a deep light flashed across the bottom of his eyes. J''s mouth is quick. When the air condenses, he reacts and says something "That... I didn''t mean to." J hummed, "I just... I just don''t want Jane Mo to leave." Shi Shaoqin frowned again. "Who said she would leave?" "Isn''t it?" J raised his eyes and asked a rhetorical question. In the dark, he could only see Shi Shaoqin''s figure and his expression However, even so, he seemed to feel the different breath of Qin Shao. "I don''t know why..." J hummed. "I think Jane Mo will go this time." Shi Shaoqin looked back coldly and listened to j muttering, "I feel you won''t stop..." "J, have you ever thought about leaving here?" Shi Shaoqin suddenly changed the subject. "Huh?" J smiled suspiciously, and his youthful face was at a loss. "When I brought you back, I said I could give you your freedom..." J looked down. "But where can I go?" When asked this sentence, it was obvious that J was filled with a thin sadness "I have no friends since childhood, and I don''t know who my father is..." J skimmed. "Of course, it doesn''t matter who it is to me. Anyway, my father doesn''t know, and my mother doesn''t like me." J said at last, his voice had extravagant hopes he didn''t know. He doesn''t understand why Jane Mo has such feelings for an unborn child He had never felt his mother''s strong feelings. They all thought he was bad and didn''t like him at all. "You can leave too..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice showed a little sadness in the distance, "just accompany her for me." "Huh?" J raised his eyes and thought to Shi Shaoqin. The words behind him were too light. He didn''t hear clearly, "you just said..." "Dong Dong!" J''s words were not finished, and the knock on the door sounded again. After Shi Shaoqin answered, someone pushed the door and came in. It was the gynecologist who gave birth to Jian mo before. "Qin Shao..." the doctor just wanted to say something, when he saw J on the sofa, he immediately stopped his mouth. "I''ll go out first..." J leaned down and got up with a wink. When passing the doctor, he suddenly leaned over and asked in a low voice, "Hey, is Jane Mo''s child really dead?" The doctor was startled by his sudden move. "You... Didn''t you see that they were all dealt with?" J frowned. "I''ll just make sure. Why are you so scared?" He hummed, "I''m not Qin Shao. I''ll be anywhere... Eh!" He deliberately made a move to wipe his neck. Seeing that the doctor''s face turned white, he left triumphantly Hum! What famous gynecologist... There''s no way to keep Jian Mo''s child?! The doctor was still a little frightened. Frightened by J, she watched Shi Shaoqin''s figure hidden in the dark and swallowed it involuntarily. The door was closed and she stood in the nearest place "Are you ready?" Shi Shaoqin turned slowly, looked at the doctor''s figure and asked quietly. "Yes." The doctor nodded, thought for a moment, or asked, "would you like to see it?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, just slightly lowered his eyes "Maybe it''s the last sight..." the doctor said after all, "Mom can''t have a look. Are you really not going?" Chapter 784 Silence! The long silence made the doctor afraid However, she felt that this man was not as cold as his appearance. But at the thought of what J just did for her, she swallowed it subconsciously, and always felt chilly in her neck "OK." Gently a word, overflow good-looking lips, not too much emotion. At night, Gu Beichen just comforted Jane Mo, fed her some food, watched her gradually fall asleep and came quietly Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the incubator and looked at the little Yan inside. His eyes were deep as if he wanted to absorb all the sadness. "The baby''s life is getting weaker and weaker. I''m afraid it can''t support the instrument to arrive..." The doctor''s words echoed in his ears Shi Shaoqin looked at Xiao Yan with more and more profound eyes. "Qin Shao, the chances of children surviving are getting smaller and smaller. Even if they are sent to a professional nursing place, I''m afraid..." The doctor didn''t go on, because the man''s breath made her unable to look directly at him. "I want him to live as much as possible..." Shi Shaoqin''s indifferent voice sounded softly, "understand?" The doctor could only nod, "although I know I shouldn''t say so, I still want to remind Qin Shao that the survival rate is really too small." "I''ll send you and him out of here," Shi Shaoqin''s faint voice slowly spilled over his lips. "What should I do? I think... I don''t need to repeat." "I understand..." the doctor nodded heavily. When the child has no absolute hope of survival, she must keep the secret of the child and life. The doctor looked at the incubator and whispered in his heart: Lord, please give baby health! The doctor went to the outside room. Shi Shaoqin still looked at Xiao Yan in the incubator and didn''t move for a long time. "You have destroyed silence," Shi Shaoqin''s voice came. He raised his hand and pointed his belly across the incubator, as if gently stroking Xiao Yan''s face. "I accompanied your initial growth and your last time before coming to this world." "I don''t want to hurt you..." Shi Shaoqin sneered at himself, "I don''t want to hurt her..." The gentle words fall, with hidden sadness. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were filled with strong self mockery... It was a kind of lost helplessness after greed. "Will you hate me as much as your mother?" Shi Shaoqin asked softly, "well, after all... I won''t let her see you for the last time. Even Chen hasn''t seen you..." In the empty room, only the instruments that kept Xiao Yan alive made a slight noise. The emptiness seemed to echo, permeated with people''s sadness. "That''s it..." Shi Shaoqin gently slid his finger. "If, if you can survive, it''ll be my gift to them." "If they can''t survive, why should they be sad after holding hope again?" In the light Yi''s voice, there was a soft sadness, "you said, right?" No one answered him. Shi Shaoqin slowly stopped his hand and stared deeply at the little man in the incubator... The beautiful handsome face gradually collected the overflow emotion from the bottom of his heart and became cold. Turn slowly... Shi Shaoqin walks out. The arrival of a life, he thought for him, is the hope to the sunshine... But in the end, he is extravagant. He shouldn''t be greedy. It''s not that Chen can go out. After all, there is no Jianmo in this world, isn''t it?! The self mockery inadvertently crossed the bottom of his eyes, and Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes The despair in his eyes gradually converged in the deepest part of his eyes. No one could see it. He could only lick it by himself. The doctor left, and no one knew that she was accompanied by a child who should have died. On the plane, there were precision instruments and incubators. After Xiao Yan was transferred to it, the plane took off under the gaze of Shi Shaoqin Some people don''t understand why the doctor asked Shi Shaoqin to send him in person. It is rumored that Shi Shaoqin may have a crush on the doctor. It is also rumored that the doctor saved Jian Mo''s life, so Shi Shaoqin treated her with special courtesy After all, the Mo palace has been crazy recently. Shi Shaoqin is different from Jian Mo because he is in love with her! But no matter what kind of rumors, we only dare to do the entertainment under the occasional pastime. In Mo palace, no one dares to defy Shi Shaoqin Some people even say that in this world, except for a simple Mo, they can''t imagine who can make Shi Shaoqin gentle. But later, when a man became the star of Shi Shaoqin, the people in Mo palace knew So... Shi Shaoqin can not be indifferent. You can also gradually get rid of the heavy hostility under the helpless compromise. "What about Xiao Yan?" The voice came from behind, showing the forbearance under indifference. Shi Shaoqin stopped, turned slowly, looked at Gu Beichen in the backlight of the corridor and smiled, "buried... Do you want me to dig it out for you?!" In the light eh''s voice, there is cold blood under ridicule. "Originally, I wanted to make a specimen... At least let you have a look, isn''t it?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was filled with a bloodthirsty smile, "but later, I think I don''t have that hobby for the time being." "Shi Shaoqin!" Gu Beichen gnashed his teeth and squeezed out his name. "Chen, I advise you... If you don''t want Jane Mo to continue to indulge in the child''s sadness, first of all, you have to learn to let go, don''t you?" "That''s my child. I didn''t even have time to take a look..." Gu Beichen gnashed his teeth. "What if I read it?" Shi Shaoqin said lightly, "will you live?" "Shi Shaoqin, you owe me a life!" Gu Beichen''s hand was already clenched, and his whole body was filled with murderous spirit. Shi Shaoqin was unmoved. He just looked back coldly and said, "today, I don''t care about you breaking into the ink palace..." He said, Junyan is already cold, "here are ten days. If the third thing is not done properly... Then Jane Mo will follow." Gu Beichen snorted coldly, "what if I do the third thing?" He sneered, "can you stand in the sun like me?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but the cold breath gradually filled his body. "Still say..." Gu Beichen more and more sneered and sneered, "I will stand with you in the dark?" Shi Shaoqin frowned faintly. "Shi Shaoqin, from leaving the Mo palace for the first time to stepping here again..." Gu Beichen gritted his teeth, "my biggest mistake is to pull you ashore!" "Pull me?" Shi Shaoqin sneered, "you and Jian Mo are really a couple... Overestimate your strength!" Sarcastic words, cold and thin, in the night wind and waves, more ruthless and cold. "Shaoqin," Gu Beichen''s voice obviously became far-reaching, "the third thing, what''s the significance?" Chapter 785 "Huh?" Shi Shaoqin said softly. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were as deep as the sea, "I''ll trade. Your ultimate goal is to ruin my reputation..." Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes slightly and put an unintelligible smile on the corner of his mouth. "I guess," Gu Beichen''s voice has gradually calmed down, "do you want to use a batch of goods as a price, in exchange for my exposure in the world, my criminal behavior?" Before Shi Shaoqin answered, Gu Beichen continued, "well, then coincidentally, there were some anti drug policemen in front of me..." Shi Shaoqin''s smile deepened a little. Under the less bright corridor, there was an obvious evil cunning under Yin and softness. "The other party of delivery turns into a tainted witness..." Gu Beichen sneered, "who cares what the truth is?" After a pause, he lowered his eagle eyes and said in a secluded voice: "people get stolen goods... In this world, what everyone likes to see most is the corruption and scandal of celebrities." Because, in people''s bad nature, they can''t always see those who are superior Like to see them dismount, or use the sharpest way. "You want to let Jane Mo know that I''m incompetent..." Gu Beichen said indifferently. "Even, I''ve become the furthest and vicious person from her understanding of human nature." Before Shi Shaoqin could speak, Gu Beichen looked up at him and then said, "Shaoqin, you don''t understand..." "The only person who loves her is the one who laughs at me." Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a mocking smile, "I''m just her ah Chen, there''s nothing else..." "Really?" Shi Shaoqin hissed coldly. Gu Beichen ignored Shi Shaoqin''s light eh, but said gently, "although I didn''t do the third thing, I have already done it." His voice was very calm and seemed a little tired. "From the moment you let Mo''er fall down the stairs, it was doomed to the tragedy of your life." Gu Beichen stared at Shi Shaoqin deeply, and then turned back to Jian Mo''s room. Under the light and shadow, the tall figure has never been sad. As a husband, he didn''t protect his wife He is a father. First, he didn''t accompany Xiaojie''s growth, and then let Xiaoyan leave their lives He is in vain as a father, and he is even more ashamed of his husband! Shi Shaoqin didn''t move. He just watched Gu Beichen disappear into the deepest part of his eyes Yes, the third thing, as Chen said, he wants to ruin his reputation and even become a lost dog! He wants to know if Jane Mo will still love him without hesitation Turning slowly, Shi Shaoqin''s figure was pulled long by the light and fell on the carpet, showing loneliness under solitude. Before, he wanted to try. And now Shi Shaoqin''s footsteps were too heavy to pick up. What about now? ha-ha! I don''t want to Maybe, darkness is lonely. Why should he take someone to accompany him?! The next day, the weather in Mo palace was a little gloomy again. Occasionally, the sun broke through the thick clouds and was covered again in a flash. With Gu Beichen, it is obvious that Jian Mo has settled down a lot, although everyone can see that she is suppressing her emotions. "Sleep after eating, huh?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo gently. Jane moo smiled at the corner of her mouth and nodded slightly. Gu Beichen did not leave his hands and personally fed Jian Mo to eat A little bit, a little bit. He knew that she had no appetite. She just didn''t want him to worry. But even so, he could only endure heartache and let her endure to eat more. After giving birth to the child, she was already weak. She also experienced such sadness... He didn''t want her to leave too much ill health in the future. After feeding Jian Mo, Gu Beichen casually pulled two bowls of rice under her gaze before coaxing her to sleep. "Asleep?" The soft voice came with a touch of worry. Gu Beichen looked back at the stone Jue Chi and didn''t speak. He just covered the quilt for Jian Mo and went out of the bedroom. On the corridor, the silence under the empty silence makes people a little dignified. "When are you going to leave?" Shi juechi broke the silence and asked. "Wait for Mo''er''s wound to heal a little..." Gu Beichen''s voice was very light, as if he was afraid to disturb Jian Mo who was sleeping... Although he knew clearly that such a voice could not penetrate the closed door at all. Shi juechi was silent again. "I didn''t expect that you would cooperate with Shaoqin." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes drooped slightly, and the corners of his mouth overflowed with a touch of self mockery. "When he let me go, in fact, you expected, or one day, didn''t you?" He sneered, "after all, he can''t wait so long to deal with Luo Songxian." "Shaoqin didn''t know that you let him go." Shi Jue Chi spoke faintly. He didn''t know whether it was for fear of Jane Mo hearing it or because of his body. Gu Beichen leaned slowly against the wall, and his eyes hung slightly with his hands copying his pockets. The collar of his shirt was unbuttoned, revealing two of wheat''s skin. The sleeve was also pulled to his elbow, and the light shrouded him, revealing the madness under the evil atmosphere Once, Shi juechi felt that she saw Gu Beichen who was in the ink palace. "He doesn''t remember that it''s normal..." Gu Beichen said slowly after a while. "When the Dragon boss was young and frivolous, Shaoqin belonged to people who couldn''t understand his mind." "Beichen, you didn''t think about it..." Shi juechi asked after being silent. "Is Shaoqin actually trying to let you go?" Gu Beichen sneered, "maybe!" He doesn''t know whether he doesn''t want to think deeply or think well of Shi Shaoqin... Anyway, what does it matter now?! "In fact, I don''t understand..." Gu Beichen paused slightly. "At the beginning, although strictly speaking, he didn''t completely let me go." After a pause, he looked at Shi Jue Chi, "why?" At that time, even if Shi Shaoqin didn''t let go, boss long would take him away But it takes more effort. "Beichen, no one really wants to stay in the dark." Shi juechi''s voice showed the desolation, "he''s just afraid... After all, once, he was the same as you." Gu Beichen''s heart suddenly became heavy. It had nothing to do with anything else... Just thought of his own experience. He knows who Luo Songxian is. I''m afraid he received less than one tenth of what Shi Shaoqin received on Luo Songxian''s side. At the beginning, he could hardly stand up, not to mention Shi Shaoqin?! "He doesn''t remember..." Shi Jue paused for a while before slowly opening his mouth. "Maybe he thought that even if he didn''t let go, you would have left!" "I won''t thank him." Gu Beichen said coldly, "thank you for taking care of Mo''er and Xiao Yan... I don''t want Mo''er to indulge in this matter, but this account..." He suddenly paused, his eyes slightly deviated, fell on the other end of the corridor, did not know when Shi Shaoqin stood there, and slowly said, "sooner or later, I''ll find him!" Chapter 786 "And then?" Shi juechi''s voice was always light, which made people feel that he was talking about ordinary things. "Are you going to jump in again after you leave?" He didn''t find Shi Shaoqin, but asked with a heavy voice. "Jue Chi," Gu Beichen closed his eyes, and some dry feeling came, "that''s my child!" Shi Jue Chi was silent. "Would you believe... Shaoqin didn''t mean it?" "I heard you were..." Gu Beichen opened his eyes and looked at Shi Jue Chi, "do you believe it?" The sound of light eh fell, and his sight had slowly moved to Shi Shaoqin who had always stood in place. "..." Shi Jue Chi was silent again. When he got out of the elevator, he saw Shaoqin pushing foam from his angle... I doubt it, but I don''t want it to be Shaoqin''s original intention. After all, in such days and circumstances, Shaoqin may really lose his mind. "You can''t be sure, can you?" Gu Beichen''s voice showed a trace of danger, "after all, it''s such a day!" Shi juechi frowned slightly, looked at Gu Beichen, crossed his eyes, was surprised, and suddenly looked back Under the dim yellow light, the man''s figure is cold and thin, standing there, instantly giving people a sense of loneliness under alienation. "Shaoqin?!" Shi Shaoqin glanced lightly at Shi Jue Chi, raised his steps, and walked forward slowly, "you''re not in good health, and you still have so much heart?" The words were with Shi Jue Chi, but his sight was opposite Gu Beichen. But in an instant, the surrounding air contained electro-optic flint. "Settle accounts?" The sound of light Yi overflowed the beautiful lips and was full of ridicule. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, "Chen, you have left the Mo palace for a long time, as if... You have completely forgotten the rules here." "Why, don''t you let it go?" Gu Beichen''s voice was very calm, but he was hoarse without a good rest. "Or do you think I can''t go?" "Try?" Shi Shaoqin sneered, "if you can take Jian Mo away this time, I won''t trouble you from now on." "Can''t go?" Gu Beichen is light. Shi Shaoqin looked at Gu Beichen''s line of sight gradually getting deeper and deeper, "that''s not my fault." After the words fell, he took back his sight indifferently, glanced at the stone Jue Chi, turned and left first. No one doubts Shi Shaoqin''s words, even if... It sounds indifferent and makes people think what he said is irrelevant. But Gu Beichen and Shi juechi knew that he was not joking. If Gu Beichen doesn''t leave with Jian Mo this time, he will only fall into the next dark reincarnation. "Shaoqin, do you have to lose both?" Shi juechi''s voice was tired and looked at the figure shrouded in darkness, "or do you have to see Mo Mo die before you are happy?" "What?" Shi Shaoqin suddenly smiled, with some doubt, "Jane Mo can''t die?" "Are you willing?" Shi Jue Chi snorted coldly. Shi Shaoqin smiled more and more deeply. He slightly lowered his eyes, turned around and looked up at the sight of Shi juechi at the door of the study, "why not give up?" Shi Jue Chi immediately frowned, "if you are willing to accept that situation, what are you worried about?" He gritted his teeth. "Shaoqin, do you need to disguise in front of me?" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and didn''t answer. "You like foam, don''t you?" Shi juechi asked, gritting his teeth. The smile of Shi Shaoqin''s mouth deepened a little, revealing the secluded distance under the depth. "In that case, can''t you accomplish it?" "Like it?" Shi Shaoqin seemed to be very strange to the word. After whispering, his whole body was suddenly replaced by indifference, "a woman of another man is just a chess piece in my eyes!" His voice gradually became cold to ice, "I''m worried, but it''s because of the agreement with Chen." He snorted coldly, "now, Chen doesn''t intend to do the third thing... Naturally, I don''t need to abide by the agreement, do I?" Shi juechi looked at him. Even though the angle of the light was inappropriate, he still saw Shaoqin''s handsome face shrouded in cold frost. He is too familiar with him This is the most direct expression under his cold heart over the years. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen didn''t have a good rest for several days, so he put on his clothes and lay next to Jane Mo, gently stretching his arm under her neck, just as he used to sleep together every time. But even with Gu Beichen by his side, Jian Mo still slept uneasily. You''ll wake up in a moment. In the dream, it was full of black fog. A child called her ''mother'', but when she looked for it, she couldn''t find it again. "Well..." Jane Mo only felt that her head seemed to burst at once, and she immediately suffered from neuralgia. "Mo''er?" Gu Beichen gently took her into his arms, looked at her frowned face and kissed her eyebrows painfully. Jane Mo felt the familiar breath and slowly opened her eyes. She took a deep breath. She just said, "I just pulled the wound..." The breath of forbearance came through cowardice. Gu Beichen was more and more distressed, "let the doctor come and have a look later, huh?" Jane nodded. "I''ll go to the kitchen and get you something to eat," Gu Beichen said softly. "I''ll get it myself, huh?" Jane Mo shook her head. Subconsciously, her hand also grasped Gu Beichen''s sleeve, "if you have sister-in-law Yue, don''t go..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Jane Mo''s fear deep in her eyes. Her eyes were deep and nodded, "OK." Jian Mo looked at the dark blood at the bottom of Gu Beichen''s eyes and stabbed his lower lip, "wait, will you continue to sleep with me?" "Do you want me to accompany you?" Gu Beichen gently rubbed Jian Mo''s forehead and asked in a dull voice. "Yes." Jane Mo answered gently, "with you with me, I can sleep." "OK..." Gu Beichen replied, "there''s nothing to do these days. I''ll keep the wound with you and we''ll go." "Yes." Jane nodded. Gu Beichen kissed her on the corner of her lips. The original miss was suddenly oppressed by sadness. At this moment, there was always a trace of complexity in her touch. "I''ll ask them to prepare food for you first..." Gu Beichen said hoarsely on Jian Mo''s lips, and then got up. Jane Mo didn''t move, so she looked at Gu Beichen and shouted He hasn''t rested for a long time, has he? I''ve never seen such fatigue on his face She is sad to lose Xiaoyan, but he has to bear double the sadness from Xiaoyan and her. Jian Mo''s eyelashes trembled slightly. When Gu Beichen ordered him to turn back, he quickly lowered his eyes and collected his emotions. Compared with the bedroom, the factory behind the Mo palace castle is full of murderous spirit. "Qin Shao!" Mosen was shot several times by Shi Shaoqin in the leg, so he could only move in a wheelchair for the time being. "Everyone has been cleaned up." Shi Shaoqin raised his eyelids slightly, looked at the locked people, and asked in a cold voice, "are you sure it''s only these?" "Yes!" Mosen hung his eyes and didn''t dare to speak too slowly. Shi Shaoqin chuckled and looked down like an ice cone across the crowd. "He''s in the palace of Mexico... It''s a lot of Eyeliner!" Chapter 787 In SE Leng''s voice, there was depression. The captured people trembled uncontrollably Someone had brought a chair for Shi Shaoqin. He sat down calmly and was lazy all over. But because of this laziness, those people were more and more frightened. Although they are Luo Songxian''s eyeliner, but in the end in the Mexican palace for a long time, too understand Shi Shaoqin this person...... The more bloodthirsty he is, the calmer he is. "I can find so many people at once," Shi Shaoqin slowly looked at Mosen, with a sharp look in the bottom of his eyes. "Mosen, you really surprised me." Mohsen suddenly ''cluttered'' in his heart and didn''t dare to see Shi Shaoqin. "It was all my mistakes before." He was the one who followed Shi Shaoqin for a long time. He was in a panic for a moment, but he didn''t show it on his face. "Well, there are a little more people..." Shi Shaoqin said softly, and looked at the people with a smile. "I''d rather kill by mistake than let go. It''s my habit." Someone''s body has been out of control and began to tremble People are often like this. When doing things, they never think about what they will bear as a result. Unfortunately, it''s too late to bear it. "Qin Shao, what should I do?" Mosen asked after collecting a trace of uneasiness in his heart. Shi Shaoqin glanced at him lightly, "don''t pick it up first..." Morson was a little surprised. Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes, and his sight just fell on his hand. "How does Luo Songxian usually play?" While the voice of light Yi fell, he raised his eyes again, with a strange smile at the bottom of his eyes. "Think about it. If I''m satisfied, let you die happier." As soon as those people listened, their pupils dilated one by one, and there was uncontrollable panic in the fundus of their eyes. "Well, just this expression..." Shi Shaoqin said with a smile, "he seems to enjoy it most." "Qin, Qin Shao..." someone stammered in such an atmosphere, "I, I was forced." "Oh?" "Luo... Lord Luo controls my family. I... I can''t help it!" He opened his mouth, and suddenly someone began to shout, but they were all forced. Shi Shaoqin''s words are already obvious that they will not die, and Luo Songxian''s set will be used on them No one is not frightened. Even, I wish I could die right now. Unfortunately, how could Shi Shaoqin let them die so easily?! "Mosen..." "Qin Shao?" Mosen swallowed secretly and looked at Shi Shaoqin. I don''t know why, he suddenly felt a strange feeling... It''s like Qin Shao at the moment, which he hasn''t seen before. "You watch," Shi Shaoqin said calmly. "If one dies, I''ll find you!" Calm words made Mosen''s heart tighten. He swallowed secretly and answered Ignoring the noise of the crowd, Shi Shaoqin got up, took back his eyes coldly, turned and walked out. Morson looked at his back and gradually lost his mind... Inexplicably, there was a feeling that Qin Shao seemed to have found something. It was already dark when Shi Shaoqin left the factory. The sound of the waves rolling, coming from time to time, is very regular, but it is also depressing. "Qin Shao..." J just finished filling the loopholes in the defense system. Seeing Shi Shaoqin, he ran over with the computer in his arms. "I''m sure no one can anti-interference this time." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered indifferently and walked slowly to the ancient castle. J followed and suggested, "let''s go to Jane Mo''s room for dinner?" "No." "Then ask Jane Mo to go to the restaurant for dinner?" "She has a knife in her abdomen and can''t walk around at will." "Don''t you want to see her?" "No!" "You just let Gu Beichen accompany her from morning to night?" J said discontentedly. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and stopped slowly The sight fell in front, gradually lost focus, and the voice gently spilled over the lips, "she is Chen''s wife, he accompanied..." he made a self mockery at the bottom of his eyes, "it seems that there is nothing wrong." J didn''t hear anything wrong in Shi Shaoqin''s tone, but muttered, "but I want to see her..." "No!" Shi Shaoqin glanced at J. J immediately gritted his teeth, "you didn''t let me see Jane Mo, and you let me leave the Mo palace?" Shi Shaoqin slightly unseen twisted the center of his eyebrows, looked at J, didn''t speak, raised his step and continued to walk to the ancient castle Here, no one''s mind is too simple to j... So that no one can see some things more clearly than him. J stood there, looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back and muttered, "you don''t dare to see it yourself, and you won''t let me go... Hum!" After Shi Shaoqin returned to the castle, he was going to the study, but he didn''t know how to get to Jian Mo''s bedroom. The door was not closed tightly. From his angle, he could see Jian Mo on the bed... And Gu Beichen who fed her. Without warning, the door suddenly opened from the inside. "Qin Shao?" Xiao Siyue was surprised. After looking at him, he looked back at Gu Beichen and Jian mo. Now that he was found, Shi Shaoqin simply walked in When Jian Mo saw Shi Shaoqin, he couldn''t help but overflow his hatred. Such hatred, like a knife, crossed Shi Shaoqin''s heart. Pain! But he didn''t show it at all. Gu Beichen took back his indifferent sight on Shi Shaoqin and looked at Jian Mo with tenderness, "I''ll eat first, huh?" Jian Mo subconsciously catches Gu Beichen. She doesn''t know whether she doesn''t want him to go or whether she is afraid to be alone with Shi Shaoqin. "Nothing, huh?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s eyes and comforted her. Jane and his eyes were on each other. There was something that seemed to be tacit. Hands, release slowly. Jane murmured her lower lip and nodded gently. Gu Beichen got up and glanced at Shi Shaoqin''s eyes with a warning. Shi Shaoqin sneered at the corner of his lower lip and didn''t put Gu Beichen''s warning in his heart at all. After Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and left, she looked at Shi Shaoqin coldly, "what''s the matter with me?" That night, it was like drawing a cold and hot line If Jian Mo had any fear or thoughts about Shi Shaoqin before, now, in addition to resentment, there is only indifference. "Come and see, child and Chen, who will be more important to you." "Qin Li and Shi tou really laughed at him." Jane Mo immediately frowned, "what do you mean?" "When one comes, he only asks you, not the child..." Shi Shaoqin''s ridicule is too lazy to hide. "You see Chen, as if you don''t care so much about the child''s death." Jian Mo immediately clenched his little hand, "Shi Shaoqin, don''t impose your cold blood on others." "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin chuckled, "isn''t... What I said true?" After all, Jane Mo was irritated by his two words. "What does a person who only wants to stay in the dark deserve to accuse others?" She sneered, "Shi Shaoqin, I thought you didn''t have to... But I was wrong!" Shi Shaoqin''s eyes became cold. "If you come now, it''s just to make me feel worse..." Jane Mo sneered, which was a very ugly smile. "You won... I feel bad." In this way, falling in Shi Shaoqin''s heart is like dropping a handful of salt "I''m having a hard time. How are you?" Jane Mo continued to sneer, "you are cowardly and unwilling to come out, even if you are clearly greedy." She didn''t know whether she was too angry or something. Her breath was a little unstable. "In the final analysis, you are selfish and can''t get out by yourself. I hope everyone will accompany you!" The cold accusation is like a scarred hand, instantly, bloody. "You," said Jane Mo, gnashing her teeth and squeezing her words out of her teeth, "are selfish and cowardly!" The air was suddenly thin because of tension. "Do you think," Shi Shaoqin''s voice came through the condensation under the cold, "if Gu Beichen is here, you have nothing to fear?" Chapter 788 Xu is true, as Shi Shaoqin said, because Gu Beichen is there, Jian Mo has no fear. Or, after Xiao Yan''s "leaving", she has nothing to fear While Shi Shaoqin''s words fell, she not only didn''t avoid his eyes, but even stubbornly confronted him. "In my blood," I don''t know how long later, Shi Shaoqin''s indifferent voice came, "originally, half is cowardly and crazy, while the other half......" he hissed and slowly said the second half "... It''s selfish and cool." Jane Mo''s heart seemed to be knocked down with a hammer. She held her lips tightly and felt that she was ridiculous and pathetic at the moment. Even... Poor! She is not the Savior, but she thinks that Shi Shaoqin is not as bad as she thinks. She was not the virgin white lotus, but went to save Mosen and let Xiao Yan be buried with her. Finally? A fundamentally wrong kindness, now in Shi Shaoqin''s words, has become the biggest joke in her life The eyes were unknowingly red, and the nose was even more sour. However, in an instant, a layer of water mist had already appeared at the bottom of Jian Mo''s eyes "Shi Shaoqin..." Jian Mo''s voice choked with grief, "I have lost Xiao Yan..." Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but looked at Jian Mo quietly. "Let me live with ah Chen," Jian Mo sniffed and looked at Shi Shaoqin with wet eyes, "that''s it... Isn''t it good?" She has lost Xiao Yan. Can she have a clean and ordinary life? She just loves a man with a story, but she doesn''t want more people to carry it because of this story "The agreement has not been fulfilled, has it?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was cold. Jane Mo trembled her eyelashes and said in a trembling voice, "you made me lose Xiao Yan. What reason do you have to say to fulfill the agreement?" "I have the right to speak, don''t I?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice became more and more indifferent. Jane Mo''s lips trembled, which was a kind of weakness. "How do you want to let us go?" She said, her voice could not help roaring, "you say, you say?!" Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but watched Jian Mo collapse in front of him again "Just tell me how you can let us go, you say --" Jane foam roared, "as long as you say, I''ll do it!" In the cruel voice, there is a deep pain that people can''t ignore. It''s such a wound. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s collapse with long and narrow eyes and laughed at himself Jue Chi said he liked Mo''er, didn''t he? Maybe! It''s just that he can''t see what he thinks of her There is pity, envy and yearning. However, that should not be love? "Take the ring off your hand..." Shi Shaoqin said slowly. Jane Mo was stunned by his request for a moment, but she held her ring hand reflexively, "what are you doing?" "It''s not what I said. Will you do it?" Shi Shaoqin said sarcastically in his voice, "or... Do you think you can''t do such a request?" The ring of the ring hurt her fingers, but Jane Mo held her hand tighter, "that''s my wedding ring!" "So what?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, "or... Do you think it''s more difficult to take off that ring than I let you go?" The sneering voice did not hide anything, but deeply dug Jane Mo''s heart. Jian Mo''s other hand has covered the ring, as if Shi Shaoqin would rob it later. That''s the ring ah Chen proposed to marry, and it''s also the "imprisonment" nearest to her heart. It''s not a ceremony, it''s love! Jian Mo''s lips became tighter and tighter. A pair of wet eyes looked at Shi Shaoqin''s motionless. "Oh!" Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes and smiled lightly, then raised his eyes. When he looked at Jian Mo again, his eyes were cold. "Give you time to think..." Shi Shaoqin said faintly, "if you want to understand, come to me." His words fell and he turned. "Remember, you are only allowed to be alone..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice showed the indifference of being indisputable. "Come to me with your ring!" Without stopping, Shi Shaoqin walked out coldly. Outside, Gu Beichen leaned lazily against the wall, holding an unlit cigarette in his hand. Shi Shaoqin closed the bedroom door and blocked the outside and inside. "Still don''t give up?" Gu Beichen opened his mouth gently, and his voice was a little hoarse. I don''t know whether it''s because of poor rest or Shi Shaoqin''s request for Jian mo. "Are you afraid?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, and there was a complete sneer in his voice. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, just a cold face with tight lines. "Three things, you can''t break the rules..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice came coldly. "Either, Jane Mo came to me with a ring, or... You go to do the last thing." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but the haze gradually shrouded on Jun''s face. "How did you know?" Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and asked. Cold secret ring, "Shao Qin?" He said softly, but he was sure that this was what Gu Beichen asked. Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Eagle eyes looked at him coldly. Unfortunately, Shi Shaoqin didn''t intend to tell him Without saying anything, he raised his steps and walked to the other side of the castle. But after a few steps, he suddenly stopped and glanced back slightly, with a mockery in his voice, "I guess... You just let me be alone with Jane mo. you know that she will beg me to let you go, don''t you?" Gu Beichen narrowed his eagle eyes slightly and didn''t speak. "Chen, when... Will you use women to play such a mind?" Shi Shaoqin''s sarcastic breath is becoming stronger and stronger. Gu Beichen suddenly smiled, but in his slightly drooping eyes, he collected the faint emotion. "You owe her that, don''t you?" There is unspeakable complexity in the light voice. Compared with his villain, he doesn''t want to delay here and hurt Mo''er. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, didn''t say anything, took back his sight and left. Xu is that he and Gu Beichen are too similar to each other. Even though they have gone two ways, he still feels his mind. Yes, he owes Jane mo. Even if... Xiao Yan may not survive. What might I do? He still likes the feeling of being alone. He can''t control the life and death of others in the dark How can he enjoy such darkness with a simple foam?! Gu Beichen got up when Shi Shaoqin disappeared around the corner, put away the smoke and went into the bedroom. Collect and remove indifference. Gu Beichen''s body is completely spoiled by Jian Mo''s tenderness, "scrub it for you and sleep... Huh?" Before Jian Mo could speak, Gu Beichen went to the bathroom "Ah Chen..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen stopped. Jane Mo looked at him. "You didn''t go to dinner, did you?" Chapter 789 Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Jian Mo deeply and sighed gently, "having a smart wife sometimes makes people feel like they have nowhere to hide..." Spoiled to helpless words, with a faint smile. Jane murmured at the corner of her mouth, "I''m not sleepy at the moment. You go to dinner." Just now he said to eat, but how could he really rest assured that she was alone with Shi Shaoqin? "Let someone bring it." Gu Beichen spoke. "I''m fine..." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth. "He just left and won''t come back." Gu Beichen nodded his head after all, "OK." She wants to think alone. He knows. Gu Beichen left for a few minutes. Before Jian Mo could think about why Shi Shaoqin wanted a ring with her, the door was pushed open Here, you come in without knocking. There is probably no one except J. "Why is your face so bad?" J saw the appearance of Jane Mo, could not help muttering and sat down by the bed. Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and smiled astringently. "I want to see you, but Gu Beichen has been... Just saw him go to the restaurant, I came over." In J''s voice, he was obviously dissatisfied, "Qin Shao won''t let me come." "I''m fine." Jane Mo''s voice is a little dumb. She knows that J cares about her. J glanced. "How can it be all right without the child?" He snorted, "you people are hypocrisy." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and lowered her eyes. "Cry when you are sad, and make trouble when you are uncomfortable!" J said of course, "anyway, I can see that some people are distressed when you cry, and some people let you cry." Even Qin Shao will give in, hum! Jane Mo is not in the mood to analyze the meaning of J''s words, but she looks a little depressed. "Hey, show you something happy?" J raised his eyebrows and looked sad. Jane Mo looked at him, a little confused. "Wait a minute..." J said. Before Jane Mo could speak, the man had left the bedroom. After a while, he ran in with a laptop. The fingers are tapping flexibly on the keyboard, looking at the fast sliding of strings on the DOS interface When the sound of "Di" came, J proudly said "done", and then turned the screen to Jian Mo''s face. In the picture, a soft light hits the center of the stage. A large and a small man in a white tuxedo is playing the piano. It looks like a concert. Listening to the tune seems to be the last song Jian Mo looked at Su Junli and Jian Jie in the picture, with a thin mist in her eyes. Seeing her like this, J immediately frowned, "Hey, hey, don''t cry..." he was a little worried, "I thought you would be happy to see Jane Jie. Why did you cry?" J said, some flustered and took away the computer, with some remorse at the bottom of his eyes. Jane Mo looked at J blankly. Until now, she found that she was crying again "Jane Mo, don''t cry." J was a little flustered. "Otherwise, when your Gu Beichen came, he thought I bullied you." Jane Mo silently wiped away her tears and pulled the corners of her mouth, "J, thank you." After a pause, she looked at the computer in his hand greedily, "can... Let me see it again?" "But you are not happy!" "Tears, sometimes it''s not sad..." Jane murmured at the corner of her mouth, "I just miss the milk bag too much." J curled his mouth, rolled his eyes and said, "your face is a capital sad... It''s not sad." Speaking later, he hummed, obviously dissatisfied. Jian Mo was silent and listened to j say, "this is the rehearsal of Su Junli''s tour concert. I cut into their backstage monitoring..." he raised his eyebrows. "The first formal game, if you can leave quickly, you can catch up." J said it unintentionally, but in his words, he seemed very sure that Jane Mo and they could go. Unfortunately, at the moment, Jane Mo was confused in her mind and didn''t think deeply at all. For five days, Shi Shaoqin didn''t appear in front of Jian mo. There are Yuesao and Gu Beichen. Obviously, Jian Mo began to recover both physically and mentally. During this period, J will come to play with Jian Mo, and Shi juechi will occasionally come to see her It seems that nothing has happened. People just think that the years are quiet and good. In the Mo palace, unless Shi Shaoqin, the rest of the people can''t contact the outside world directly, which makes Jian Mo and Gu Beichen have no distractions these days. "You look much better today." Shi Jue Chi also recovered a lot, "where''s Beichen?" "Go to the kitchen to stew the soup..." Jane Mo smiled. "He said, he made it himself. I can eat more in order not to waste his mind." "It''s also true." Shi Jue Chi smiled softly. Jane Mo smiled at her lower lip. "In fact, what he did is not delicious." "..." Shi Jue Chi was stunned and immediately laughed, "and what else can''t he do?" "Well, I''m not good at cooking." Jane Mo also smiled. "I still remember what I made for me for the first time." Jane Mo couldn''t help thinking of the dishes he made in the Runze garden solemnly. Looking at the smile on Jian Mo''s face, Shi Jue Chi knew what she remembered, and didn''t bother, but just looked at it quietly "Jue Chi!" "Huh?" Jane Mo restrained her memory. "Can you help me take Beichen away?" "What?" Shi Jue Chi Qingyi was puzzled. "I want to talk to him." Jane Mo lowered her eyes, and the fundus of her eyes was dim. Shi Jue Chi was silent. "Are you going to leave?" Jane Mo nodded and raised her eyes. "Xiao Yan is gone. I blame anyone... In fact, it''s just because I blame myself." If she didn''t take care of Mosen at last, she wouldn''t annoy Shi Shaoqin and Xiao Yan wouldn''t leave her. "Mo Mo... Don''t blame yourself like that." Shi juechi was a little sad. Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, "I''m not lucky. I haven''t kept it for so long." She sighed heavily, "I want to talk to him. Can you call ah Chen away for me?" Shi juechi was very depressed, but she still nodded. The next day, Shi juechi went to Gu Beichen and asked Xiao Siyue to take care of Jian mo. It''s tacit. Naturally... There''s no need to say anything more. After Gu Beichen left, Jian Mo put on a suit and got out of bed. After talking to Xiao Siyue, she went to the study to find Shi Shaoqin. In the dark environment, there was a ghostly gloom... Jane Mo frowned immediately. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window, covered tightly by heavy curtains, and no light came in. Jane Mo clenched her hand. Finally, she gritted her teeth and took down the ring on her finger, "here!" No matter how important the ring is to her, it can''t be compared with their peaceful life in the future. Shi Shaoqin walked over and took the ring in Jian Mo''s hand... When she took it, she obviously felt her hand grasp. "Here''s the ring. When will you let ah Chen and I leave?" Jian Mo doesn''t want to talk nonsense with Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin''s good-looking lips slightly hooked, "do you think I want your ring?" He said softly, "it''s so valuable that I have to, or can it split you?" The sarcastic question showed disdain. Jian Mo endured her anger and asked with gnashing teeth, "Shi Shaoqin, what do you want to do?" "Here''s a secret..." Shi Shaoqin looked at the ring. The light coming in from the corridor, the blue diamond always gives a strange smell. Jian Mo frowned slightly, as if she didn''t understand Shi Shaoqin''s words "Mo''er, I don''t want a ring." Shi Shaoqin smiled and smiled a little. He gently raised the ring, "do you dare to face the secret in this?" Chapter 790 Jane Mo didn''t react for a moment. She just stared at the ring The light of the corridor penetrates above, which is so soft that it is confusing, but it always makes people have a kind of resistant gloom. "What do you mean?" Jian moring looked at Shi Shaoqin with disgust in her voice. If she pretended before. Now Jian Mo is completely physically disgusted with Shi Shaoqin Shi Shaoqin''s long and narrow eyes narrowed slightly, and there was an indescribable emotion in his heart about Jian Mo''s attitude. "What?" Shi Shaoqin''s mouth was hooked with a cold evil smile, "didn''t Chen say it when he gave you the ring?" Jane Mo frowned a little, and her voice cooled down. "Shi Shaoqin, what do you want to do?" Shi Shaoqin chuckled and hid his handsome face in the dark, with an undisguised mockery. He didn''t speak, but turned to the cabinet and took out a toolbox. Jane Mo stood in situ and looked at his actions. The doubts in the bottom of her eyes became deeper and deeper. There''s a secret in the ring?! Jane Mo frowned and suddenly remembered that several times, in the light, the ring seemed to emit light that shouldn''t belong to diamonds. She had doubts before and was laughed at by Xiao Yue. "What are you doing?" Thinking, he saw that Shi Shaoqin took something and began to pry the blue diamond on the ring face. Jian Mo subconsciously shouted. Shi Shaoqin didn''t stop. After listening to a slight sound, the blue diamond fell on the desk. Jane Mo''s heart suddenly contracted. It felt like someone was trying to separate her from Gu Beichen. Her nose was uncontrollably sour. She hurried to one side of her face, and her eyes widened to prevent the moist overflow of the fundus of her eyes. It''s just a ring. Compared with her and ah Chen, there''s life after milk bag... It''s precious, but get rid of Shi Shaoqin! However, my heart is really blocked It''s like a ball of cotton. The more you breathe, the more you suffocate! Jian Mo sucked his nose, pulled off the corners of his mouth and looked at Shi Shaoqin. "The ring is given to you, and you have destroyed it... Shi Shaoqin, even if there is no such form, ah Chen and I can''t be separated in this life." After that, she didn''t want to face Shi Shaoqin, a pervert. She turned and wanted to leave. "Did I let you go?" The cold voice came through indifference, and Jane Mo only felt that her back was shrouded in cold. Secretly bit her teeth, and Jane Mo turned slowly, "what else do you want?" She seemed to have lost patience and could get angry at any time. The sound of "pa" came at the right time. Suddenly, the dark study became bright. Due to the contrast of the light, Jian Mo subconsciously closed his eyes... When he opened again, Shi Shaoqin had come to him. "Ah!" Jane Mo exclaimed out of surprise and stepped back However, the steps were a little vain, rubbed against the thick carpet, and the whole person fell back uncontrollably "Ah... Oh!" Jian Mo''s backward body was held by Shi Shaoqin. Due to the inertia of her body, the wound on her abdomen was pulled slightly, and a tingling pain came. Looking at the cold sweat on Jian Mo''s forehead, Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, but in a flash, his expression returned to indifference. "You let go of me!" Jian Mo pushed Shi Shaoqin away. Her feet were still unstable. She hurried to hold the door frame. Shi Shaoqin sneered, "come in!" "What are you doing?" Jane looked alert. "Don''t you want to go with Chen?" Shi Shaoqin sneered, "why, you''re so alert. Don''t come to me at all." "..." Jane Mo smiled and walked in after all. Ah Chen is here. Subconsciously, she has no fear. "Close the door!" Jane Mo endured, closed the door and went in On the desk, the face of the ring and the ring have been separated and look dazzling. Suddenly, Jane Mo frowned "What is this?" Jane Mo wondered and subconsciously wanted to take it with her hand. But before he touched his hand, he was caught by Shi Shaoqin Like an electric shock, Jane Mo has to withdraw her hand if she doesn''t want to. However, just a little twitch, you can''t get it back. "You let me go..." Jian Mo stared at Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin''s sight fell on the hand he was holding The weak boneless hand is a little cold. Through his palm, it seems to be gradually freezing his heart. Jane Mo was still struggling to break free. There was obvious anger on her face, "Shi Shaoqin, will you let it go?" "What if I don''t let go?" Shi Shaoqin suddenly looked at Jian Mo with a funny smile. His eyes were filled with complexity. Jane Mo roared angrily, "let go!" The hands that broke away also worked harder. "You said, if I let go now, would you fall because of inertia?" The voice of Shi Shaoqin''s light Yi came with danger, "or do you just want to fall and let me hold you?" Jane Mo was stunned, forgot to draw her hand, and then blushed. I don''t know whether it''s because I''m too angry or because Shi Shaoqin''s ambiguous words. At the right time, the strength in your hand suddenly released Shi Shaoqin coldly withdrew his sight and picked up the tiny thing with his previous tweezers. "Accompany me through this... Maybe I''ll let you go if I''m in a good mood." People are curious, and Jane Mo is no exception. There is such a thing hidden in the ring given by ah Chen. It really looks like a microchip?! "What is this?" Jane Mo is curious, but subconsciously resists to know. "Who knows?" Shi Shaoqin smiled dangerously at the corners of his mouth. Jane Mo swallowed it secretly. Her nerves wanted to resist, but her feet wanted to nail a nail. She couldn''t move at once. Shi Shaoqin put the tiny chip into a special card reader and then plugged it into the computer Jian Mo''s breathing was a little short, and Shi Shaoqin''s indifferent voice came at the right time, "do you want to stand?" He chuckled, "will... I let you go, but your body was defeated by yourself?" In the light voice, there was laughter. Jane Mo clenched her hand. How can there be such an annoying person as Shi Shaoqin in this world?! Jian Mo finally sat down on the sofa on one side. At the right time, Shi Shaoqin had connected the video recorder. While the connection starts, he dims the light in the study to a brightness suitable for watching videos The picture shows a period of darkness, and then a painful groan comes "Er!" With a low roar, Jane Mo''s heart stopped There was a "squeak" sound of opening the door. It sounded like an ancient wooden door. A ray of light is projected in from the outside In the picture, a young man is almost naked, lying on the dirty ground. Beside him, there is a used needle! Jane Mo''s breathing was a little fluffy. She stared at the boy on the ground and slowly raised her head Wait, wait! Affecting her breathing Until that face, with a little childish malaise, looked over... It was like looking at her through the years. "Ah Chen?!" Chapter 791 "How many injections?" There was a voice in the picture, but there was no speaker. "5 ml." Someone answered. Jian Mo''s breathing was heavy for a moment. Her thoughts and eyes had separated. Looking at Gu Beichen, who gradually began to curl up on the ground because of pain, she bit her lip "Uncomfortable?" In the picture, the voice of the person who began to speak showed the indifference of banter, "5ml... The dose is not light." Gu Beichen''s body began to tremble, and his body seemed to be blown. He felt like he was going to explode. "Wait a minute, you will lose your mind..." the man''s faint voice was obviously mixed with a smile, "the favored son of heaven? Sunshine Youth? Campus male god? Ah..." After several questions, a sneer came. "Er..." Gu Beichen uttered an uncomfortable roar, but he didn''t know whether it was because of the man''s words or physical discomfort. "I really want to see that everyone sees you like this... Is it pity or sympathy?" "In the future, what you will remember will not be the energetic Gu Beichen..." the man smiled sarcastically, "you will only remember what you look like now. When you mention it, what else can you do except sigh?" Gu Beichen''s face was already full of fine beads of sweat. He looked at the line of sight at the door, showing a dead gray laxity, mixed with stubborn anger. "Such eyes..." the speaker paused and said with a slight sigh after a long time. "I hate being familiar with it!" The voice suddenly became cold and fierce, as if it stimulated the speaker. With a bang, the door was closed. At the same time, Jian Mo''s sight was blocked, and the whole picture became dark If it hadn''t been for the intermittent sound of pain, she almost thought that the picture had been interrupted. She wants to stop. She can even feel that what happens next must not be what she can bear However, she could not stop her, as if she had been cursed. In the picture, breathing heavily, with uncontrollable panic. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were not on the video camera, but on Jian Mo''s pale face. Even if there is no picture, such sound, such pain... He can feel that Jane Mo knows what happened? "Ah --" Suddenly, a low roar came, and Jane Mo trembled. That sound was like carrying out her nerves Breathing is too heavy to be ignored. I don''t know whether it''s in the picture or from Jian mo. It''s like letting her be on the scene... Even she can make up the picture with "bad taste". Such a feeling made her nerves tremble. What painful feeling comes from It''s like stabbing you one needle at a time. It doesn''t hurt very much, but it can''t be ignored. At first, you seem to be able to ignore it, but in the end, your whole nerve will be involved in pain. "Ah... Ah..." The roar of pain came, such resistance, so at a loss. Jian Mo''s tears suddenly fell down, and she even couldn''t sit up... Her steps came to the video camera mechanically. The voice of pain came, tearing all Jane Mo''s thoughts. "Ah Chen... Ah Chen..." Jian Mo began to whisper, and even began to rub the video device. There was static electricity on her fingers. She didn''t care at all. She just looked at the video device in a panic and kept whispering Gu Beichen''s name "Ah Chen, ah Chen..." Jian Mo choked and shouted, feeling that she wanted to get into the video device and want to protect Gu Beichen. "Ah --" Just as the pain groans in the picture became more and more intense, Jian Mo finally couldn''t stand shouting. "Ah Chen, ah Chen..." She kept patting the video camera, and her face was embarrassed by tears. "Shi Shaoqin!" Jane Mo seemed to have reason at last. She roared and turned her head, "you pervert, what have you done to ah Chen... Ah?!" On Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful handsome face, there was no expression of indifference, but looked at Jian Mo faintly. Jane Mo''s eyes were blurred with tears, and her ears were still filled with the deep groans. "Stop, stop..." Jian Mo cried and shouted, "stop..." "Stop, can you really stop?" Shi Shaoqin sneered. He walked to Jian Mo and walked slowly. "Mo''er, this has happened, okay?" "Ah..." Jane Mo roared with the sound in the picture. She collapsed as if she could die at any time. The warm finger pulp gently crossed Jian Mo''s cheek, trying to wipe away her tears. At the moment of touching, Jane Mo quickly turned her face aside like a snake and scorpion, "don''t touch me with your dirty hand!" Shi Shaoqin''s hand is still frozen in the air The air is gradually condensed, with a sad and cold breath. "Yes..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice became cold. "I''m dirty!" His words were imbued with mixed emotions. Even, the originally indifferent fundus of the eye surged out of the sadness under despair. How long, how long has no one dared to say that about him?! "Shi Shaoqin, your dirty life is not mine..." In his memory, Chen once said so. Up to now, he remembers his sight like a crazy beast. They are the same, no matter once or later! However, they are not the same Because, Chen has the stars to guide him and his sun! And he... No! ha-ha! "Beg me? Beg me... I''ll let you go!" In the picture, the sound of ridicule came at the right time. After his voice fell for a long time, no one responded "Mo''er, this is a paragraph!" Shi Shaoqin''s voice came in time, "can''t you stand it?" He chuckled, "there''s still no picture... Otherwise, let you see the one with picture?" Jane Mo''s pupils dilated instantly. She looked at Shi Shaoqin in horror, as if she were looking at a monster. "Why, dare not?" The smile on the corner of Shi Shaoqin''s mouth became more and more strange. He lowered his eyes slightly and said slowly, "it''s unbearable, but it''s just the tip of the iceberg..." Jane Mo''s eyes widened. "Gu Beichen, who was touched by a man..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice suddenly became cold. "Don''t you feel sick? I didn''t lie to you. It''s true... Do you understand now?" "Ah -" Jane Mo suddenly screamed like crazy. She didn''t know where the strength came from and pushed Shi Shaoqin away. Shi Shaoqin was pushed away by her for a few steps, but he didn''t change his expression coldly. "Shi Shaoqin, even if ah Chen is unbearable, he is also the one I love..." Jian Mo roared madly, "I don''t care what his past is like, and I don''t care what he will become in the future... In this world, no one and nothing can separate us!" Shi Shaoqin slightly narrowed his eyes and looked into the depths of Jian Mo''s eyes... With deep greed and extravagance. And such emotions finally turned into self pity It has nothing to do with him, has it?! "Don''t you just want me to see ah Chen''s unbearable past?" Jian Mo rubbed away her tears, looked at Shi Shaoqin with red eyes and said, "OK, let me see the picture?" She sneered, her face a little ferocious. "You see if I will dislike him," Jane Mo said clearly word by word. "Do you see if I will love him more?!" Chapter 792 "Shi Shaoqin, I''ll tell you plainly that Gu Beichen is a man..." Jian Mo stared and said forcefully, "I Jian Mo has determined that no matter what happened... He is just my husband and my man!" Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s sight and became more far-reaching "You want to use these to stimulate me and make me sick?" Jane Mo sneered, "well, I''ll tell you now... I won''t!" Her eyes gradually became firm, inside, completely fearless, "I will only love him more..." The voice fell, and Jian Mo looked straight at Shi Shaoqin. She told him in this way that she was not capricious, let alone talking. Instead, she was firm from her heart. A firmness to the man she wants to love all her life The waves, rolling on the beach, wipe out the traces before It''s like the past has been erased. "You can rest assured that Shaoqin is alone with her?" Shi juechi seemed more worried than Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen took his pocket with both hands and fell on the sea with a deep vision. "If he wants to tell Mo''er about my past, just tell me!" He lowered his eyes slightly, "sooner or later, I''ll tell her." Moreover, the past in the ring, the moment he gave it to Mo''er, made it possible for her to know at any time. Love needs strategy and management. If he can''t accept it, he can only Only what? let go? Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a smile, which was cold and overbearing. This woman, anyway, he won''t let go in his life... Whether to accept it or not is not bad! "Don''t you worry about being turned into something by Shaoqin if it doesn''t exist." Shi Jue Chi frowned, and his worries were even worse. "Mo''er will not leave me even if he believes it is true." Gu Beichen''s smile turned into a soft radian, his sight fell on the sea, and his eagle eyes were more firm. "Jue Chi, I''ve experienced too much in my life. I''m most glad to meet a man named Jian Mo at that time." Shi juechi didn''t answer, but looked at Gu Beichen''s back. The right time, the right person... What a wonderful thing?! "Sometimes, I even think that if I didn''t meet him at that time, maybe..." Gu Beichen said in a quiet voice. "Today''s ending will be different." "The fate of life is like this..." Shi juechi''s voice sighed a little, "don''t blame Shaoqin." Gu Beichen was silent. "I don''t blame him," he paused. "But I won''t thank him either." "You know?" Shi juechi was a little surprised. "He''s so awkward. It''s not a day or two..." Gu Beichen chuckled, unable to say whether it was ridicule or coldness. "If I didn''t know a little about him, I wouldn''t cooperate with him this time." Shi juechi sighed, "at first, he wanted to turn you into him, but there was no following in the last step..." "Yes." Gu Beichen gently replied, "so he always scares me with men." Shi juechi''s face was more dignified, "even if I let you go, it was so awkward." Gu Beichen looked back at Shi Jue Chi, "Jue Chi, you don''t have to remind me all the time." "What can I do?" Shi Juxi asked, "I don''t want Shaoqin to continue, but I don''t want you to trouble Shaoqin in the future..." He said calmly, "Beichen, Shaoqin owes you for Xiao Yan''s departure." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly again, so that people couldn''t hear what he meant. Shi juechi frowned slightly, "can you see that at the beginning, he deliberately let the Dragon owl in and take you away, and what he has done to you and Jian Mo, the gratitude and resentment between you..." when he said later, his voice was obviously dignified, "this is the end?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but Mo Tong fell deeply on the rolling sea, and couldn''t see to the end. At first, although Shi Shaoqin and the Dragon owl were right because of some things on the road, how could Shi Shaoqin give him a chance to be taken away by the Dragon owl if he had to calculate carefully? Besides, the Dragon owl had no relatives with him. Did he ever think about breaking through the shackles of the past? Just... No break! No matter whether Mo''er fell down the stairs is inevitable or accidental, but it is always his children who bear it in the end, isn''t it?! Shi Shaoqin angered Mo''er these days. In fact, he knew very well that he was intentional It''s just that he won''t say it to Mo''er generously. Mo''er can only belong to him! Say he''s selfish or he doesn''t have full confidence in Mo''er... Which man would be foolish to say that another man is good in front of his woman?! Others don''t know. Anyway, the stupid one is definitely not him! "He won''t come to me," Gu Beichen said faintly, "I won''t come to him..." "Thank you!" "You don''t have to thank me," Gu Beichen glanced at the stone Jue Chi next to him. "I just don''t want Mo''er to immerse himself in this sad past, that''s all." Xiao Yan has left. He is sad, remorseful and annoyed, but he doesn''t want Mo''er to bear it. Although he knew it was impossible. "Actually, I don''t understand..." "Huh?" Shi Jue Chi looked at Gu Beichen, "why do you have a video, why do you want to save it, and even put it in the ring to give it to Mo Mo?" "The video was given by Shaoqin..." Gu Beichen chuckled and mocked, "Xu is subconsciously resistant even if he let me go... Well, always remind me of that unbearable memory." Shi Jue Chi frowned "I kept it, maybe with the same mind as him... As Shaoqin said, we may be born the same people." Gu Beichen''s voice was faint, "if I hadn''t met a woman named Jian Mo!" Therefore, he put the worst of the past in the ring and wanted to give it to the person he couldn''t put down Maybe it''s a lover, maybe a relative! And Jian mo... Is a lover and a relative. He said that when the child was born, he would personally tell her the past Although Shi Shaoqin played the video in the end, in a sense, he said it, didn''t he?! "Jue Chi, when I solve things outside, in fact, I''m most worried about nothing else..." "What?" Shi juechi asked subconsciously. Gu Beichen slightly narrowed the eagle''s eyes, "I''m worried that Shaoqin will fall in love with Mo''er..." In the distant voice, there is a touch of longing under the desolation. He is very similar to Shi Shaoqin. He is afraid that Shi Shaoqin will be attracted by Mo''er, causing... More trouble. Shi juechi sighed secretly and didn''t speak What''s the relationship between falling in love or not falling in love?! Always, there is only one Jian Mo in the world... It doesn''t belong to him, nor to Shaoqin, but to Gu Beichen! In Shi Shaoqin''s study, the atmosphere became more and more treacherous. Jian Mo confronted Shi Shaoqin and even forgot his fatigue. "If your final goal is this video, then I''ve finished watching it... Can ah Chen and I leave?" Chapter 793 Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak. Jian Mo coldly took back his sight and dragged his tired nerves and body to the desk She looked at the ring face and ring on the table, clenched her lips, held it in her hand and walked out of the study. When she opened the door, Jane Mo''s footsteps suddenly stopped. His face was slightly deviated, and his eyes glanced to the side and back... Only Yu Guang could catch a glimpse of the figure. Shi Shaoqin still stood where he was. Even Jian Mo didn''t find out when the sound in the video disappeared. "Please keep your promise." Jane Mo''s voice came without tone. "Later, our life," she paused slightly, took back her eyes, her voice was filled with indifference, and slowly said the second half of the sentence, "please don''t participate..." The door of the study was closed with a bang. Suddenly, the study became so lonely Shi Shaoqin always stood where he was, motionless, just like a stone carving. I don''t know how long it took. After a little self mocking smile on the corners of my beautiful mouth, everything became cold. Turn around and go to the desk. He looked at the dark picture on the computer screen as the video device. His narrow eyes narrowed slightly and spilled a cold light at the same time. The slender finger moved several times on the keyboard, and the screen originally set to stop at a fixed time began to continue. Even before, only the sound picture appeared Shi Shaoqin raised his eyes and looked at the video device. The original darkness turned into a picture. Gu Beichen curled up in the corner with his whole body dirty. Because he was injected with poison, he fell into a magic barrier. A man''s filthy breath came madly, but it was not in the picture Gu Beichen fell into a dreamland. Although he knew it had nothing to do with him, he seemed to feel the same. His sight fell somewhere, and his scarlet eyes were full of madness Looking at the other place, the two men''s actions can be seen... He is on the verge of collapse. Jian Mo heard the moan, the roar of madness It''s nothing else, but it''s all the pain caused by Gu Beichen''s poison, that''s all. The picture continued, and even Shi Shaoqin fell into the coincidence point between the picture and memory Gu Beichen endured inhuman torture. He often let several men scare him. Only then will he compromise a little This video was given to Chen by him... The more you go to the back, the more unbearable it is. The weakest part of human nature is not what the body can bear, but psychology! Three months of inhuman torture, in the Mo palace... So far, only one Gu Beichen has persisted, hasn''t he? Although, he has gone crazy Crazy, after the Dragon owl took him out of the Mo palace, he abandoned himself in England. Xi poison, fight, even several times. If the Dragon owl''s people didn''t arrive, he could kill Hehe At the beginning, in order to cover up Gu Beichen''s acts in Britain, the Dragon owl really had no less intention. ¡­¡­ Jian Mo sits on the wide sofa in the bedroom. Gu Beichen stands at the door and looks at her with some thoughts pulled away. Her eyes are full of heartache. Step up and walk over Gu Beichen squatted down beside Jian Mo and took her hand with his big palm. "Why not wear more clothes?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "Mo''er, you can''t catch a cold now." Jane Mo glanced at Gu Beichen. She tightened her lips. She''s not cold The temperature of the whole castle is constant, and in recent days, because of her, the temperature has been raised a lot. She is "cold" just because of his past. I should have known this man earlier, or I should have known her better. Back when there was no Zixiao Jian Mo silently leaned over, took out the hand in Gu Beichen''s palm and hugged him, "ah Chen, I love you..." Gently, there is not much emotion, but there are too many emotions. Not pity, but firmer love! Gu Beichen couldn''t tell what his mood was at the moment. It was mixed. "Mo''er..." gently whispered, mixed with Gu Beichen''s indescribable and endless love for Jian mo. Jane Mo chuckled, even though there were tears at the bottom of her eyes, "I finally understand the meaning of the moment you put on the ring for me..." She loosened her hug and looked directly at Gu Beichen. "What you wear for me is not only a lifetime commitment, but everything you have." Jane Mo sucked her nose and didn''t let her tears fall. "For you, what I carry is not only company, but also for you, out of the dark sunshine... Right?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips heaved a faint radian. He raised his hand, crossed the corners of Jian Mo''s eyes with his thick finger belly, and wiped away the overflow crystal, "you are my sunshine..." Words fall, Gu Beichen gently kisses Jian Mo''s lips. The original touch, but in an instant, became hot Each other uses such entanglement to vent their love for each other and let go of the past. A long time later, a sunny afternoon filled the eyelids. Jane Mo suddenly thought of what happened today. At that time, each other had been able to face all kinds of things in the past. "Husband... How does a man taste?" Jane Mo stared at the computer and looked at a male CP novel. "..." Gu Beichen looked black, "what the hell?!" "When Shi Shaoqin showed me the video, there was only sound but no picture..." Jian Mo had been eroded by a woman''s Amway culture at that time. "In fact, I''m curious. Will my rival become a man in the future?" "..." Gu Beichen secretly clenched his teeth and knew that Shi Shaoqin had put it again, "there is no man!" Listening to his angry voice, Jane Mo laughed, "really?" She said solemnly, "don''t be afraid, I don''t mind... Let alone the past. Now even if a few men are my rival." Gu Beichen''s face was as black as coal, "I said, no!" He seemed very angry, "no man, no woman except you!" "But..." "Shi Shaoqin deliberately didn''t let you see the picture, just to make you misunderstand..." Gu Beichen became more and more angry. Seeing that Jian Mo still wanted to investigate, he finally pressed her down directly. The man who attacked the city and plundered the pool told him that a man''s dignity could not be questioned. On the apron of Mogong, there are luxurious private airliners. Jane Mo was wrapped tightly and got on the plane. She didn''t even miss it here. She didn''t look back. Only Shi juechi and j, Xiao Siyue, Carney and the sample came to send them. Among those people who often contact, the only Shi Shaoqin did not appear Of course, no one wants to see him, whether Gu Beichen or Jian mo. The engine of the plane roared over the ink palace and gradually disappeared into the sight of everyone Shi juechi found Shi Shaoqin in his study. He was standing in the direction of the Mo palace apron. "Shaoqin," Shi juechi asked in a heavy voice, looking at the lonely figure, "do you hurt?" Chapter 794 Shi Shaoqin stood there without moving. "After doing so much, Mo Mo hates you and even hates you..." Shi juechi was annoyed when he looked at his indifference, "are you really not in pain?" Shi Shaoqin still didn''t move. He just looked at the place where the plane disappeared and gradually became deep and bottomless. "Shaoqin..." Shi juechi cried out in pain. Looking at the lonely figure, his face and heart were distressed. "What hurts?" Shi Shaoqin sneered, "I have to say heartache... I can only say that after doing so much, I still haven''t pulled Chen into my world..." "At this moment, you still need to be duplicity in front of me?" In the voice of Shi Jue Chi Qingyi, there was anger that made Shi Shaoqin have no place to hide. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, and his narrow eyes narrowed slightly, with a touch of unclear complex emotion. "In order to let Jane Mo face the past and let her know that Beichen is unbearable, she loves him more..." Shi juechi gnashed her teeth. "In order not to let herself use the past, I can''t help threatening her in the future. Don''t you really hurt now?" One question after another, like a sharp blade, poked into Shi Shaoqin''s heart. Doesn''t it hurt? He thought it didn''t hurt However, looking at Jane Mo''s back without nostalgia and watching the plane leave the field of Mo palace, is he still in pain?! It has nothing to do with love However, when people have a yearning for beauty, they are once again plunged into darkness, which is an endless indulgence and decay. Shi Shaoqin looked at the sky where there was no trace of the plane, and sneered, "Jue Chi, do you really love Mo''er?" Shi Jue Chi frowned slightly, "Shaoqin!" "Forget it, this question is meaningless..." Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes and mocked himself. "People are gone," he turned and looked at Shi Jue Chi, "are you relieved?" Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin in some confusion. "You can also take good care of yourself?" Eh, Shaoqin light again. Shi juechi suddenly found that he couldn''t understand the man in front of him Doesn''t that mean twins should have a soul? Even though they are fraternal twins, it seems that they are getting farther and farther away?! Shi Shaoqin left the study and left Shi juechi standing alone. He couldn''t respond for a long time. Pain is good. At least... He can still feel. Shi Shaoqin went to the media room. The door was not closed. There was a noise inside. He stood at the door for a while, listening to the sound of fighting games inside, and a smile crossed his slightly drooping eyes. In this way, I feel that she is still When the next game is over, you can still hear her arguing with J. "Ah..." After the characters in the game screamed, a mechanical voice came, "gameover!" be quiet! Whether it''s the media room or outside, it''s very quiet. There is no quarrel between Jian Mo and j, nor J''s dissatisfaction and Jian Mo''s complacency Everything is quiet and annoying. The smile at the bottom of Shi Shaoqin''s eyes gradually overflowed, and when it hung around his mouth, it became self mockery. She just left, or she left with hate and resentment for him... How can she play games with J here?! The door was suddenly opened. J looked at Shi Shaoqin at the door and was surprised, "Qin Shao?!" "When are you going to leave?" Shi Shaoqin collected his thoughts from the bottom of his eyes and asked coldly. J glanced, "I don''t know..." he seemed to have a little temper, "look again!" With that, he crossed Shi Shaoqin angrily and left. He didn''t know what childish temper he was having. J looked at the sunflower bed cleaned at the gate of the castle and felt more depressed. In less than a month''s time, the dead spirit has returned here. He suddenly doesn''t like it or get used to it "What?!" J kicked the sand angrily. "He said to go and let me go to play with you... When he left, he didn''t say a word, hum!" Night, no stars come slowly. The ink palace was shrouded in darkness, and the air was inexplicably heavy. However, this is clearly the most used atmosphere in Mo palace over the years... But it seems that everyone is not used to it after Jian Mo left. Mohsen''s leg injury hasn''t healed yet. He''s still moving in a wheelchair. When Shi Shaoqin arrived at the warehouse, as soon as the door opened, there was a stench inside In the chaotic scene, men and women have long lost their initial shame. "Luo Songxian''s people, are you sure they are all here?" Shi Shaoqin asked gently, just as he caught these people that day. Mosen drooped his eyes. "I''ve checked it again and again." Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, just stood at the door The light inside set off and pulled his figure out of a very long shadow on the ground. These people, in order to survive, have lost the most fundamental conscience of human nature. And when they think they can live, give them a fatal blow, look at them a little bit of despair, a little bit of madness... Is the life he should have. "Qin Shao!" Awei came over with a cloth bag. After shouting, he threw his silver desert eagle to Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin didn''t even look, but the detective took it The cold touch, with the smell of death, in the eyes of those who have tightened their nerves, they see nothing but panic. "Bang, bang, Bang..." A clip of 16 bullets, without any pause across In the scream, the sound of Shi Shaoqin''s cold and rapid replacement of cartridge clips came, followed by the scream. The repeated screams were mixed with the sound of indifference to replace the cartridge clip, and Mohsen was suddenly a little frightened. Awei, however, just threw a magazine full of bullets at random when Shi Shaoqin withdrew from the magazine. It looks like a game However, this game is full of bloody flavor. Beg for mercy, scream, abuse and gunfire... Let the night become more and more treacherous. Shi juechi stood far away. He was just worried. Today, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo left. Shaoqin showed too indifference... He often wanted to find an outlet. Without coming forward to stop him, he couldn''t bear it, but he was not kind. Without these people, Momo''s children will not die, Shaoqin... Maybe he can take the last step. The air is filled with a bloody smell of rust, which makes people sick. Shi Shaoqin looked at the blood of those people wading across the floor, and his eyes became more and more indifferent. His shooting is very accurate. I''m afraid not many people in the world can match He didn''t want these people to die at once, so they would never be killed by him. After trying to survive, I have to face a little breath close to death. This feeling will make people crazy and collapse Morson''s heart was suddenly shrouded in cold. Although this was qinshao he was familiar with, inexplicably, he felt a little strange. Thinking, the cold touch came from the crazy and sharp cry in the warehouse Mo Sen''s heart was suddenly cold. His sight moved up from pointing to his gun barrel to Shi Shaoqin, "Qin Shao?" Chapter 795 Awei glanced at the empty cloth bag in his hand and shrugged, "Qin Shao, there is no cartridge clip." "There''s another one..." Shi Shaoqin''s cold voice came, with the thick blood smell of bloodthirsty. Morsen''s heart suddenly tightened and looked at Shi Shaoqin''s eyes, from the usual indifference to horror. Awei shook the cloth bag, "it''s really accurate..." he seemed to whisper. After all, Qin Shao didn''t ask him how many magazines he brought When a man is bloodthirsty, he still keeps his head calm. I can sweep his empty cloth bag... Tut Tut, pervert! Of course, awei dare not say this like Jane mo. "I''ll see the shipment..." awei glanced at Morson and said, "the entrance and exit are closed these days. If the goods don''t come out again, the road will be crazy." As he spoke, he turned and walked to the drug factory. He was not interested in knowing why Qin Shao left the last gun to Morson. He just knew that if he didn''t go now, he might know something he shouldn''t know, and he had to find a gun to eat by himself. "Qin Shao?" Mosen swallowed it secretly and looked at Shi Shaoqin with some confusion. Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful handsome face was completely indifferent, and the depths of his long and narrow eyes were even colder. Morson didn''t move. He didn''t even dare to think more "Deliberately annoy me, and even let people shout Mo''er..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice slowly spilled over his beautiful lips, "Mosen, you really guessed my mind thoroughly." Mosen swallowed it secretly. "Qin Shao... What do you mean?" His breath couldn''t help being confused, "I... I don''t understand..." "Don''t understand?" Shi Shaoqin sneered, "after going out, step back in the direction where Mo''er will come... Apply lubricant on the escalator. As long as she is nervous and touches it carelessly, she can''t catch it." Shi Shaoqin''s voice became colder and colder as he spoke. "If I can''t help it, it''s the best..." Shi Shaoqin sneered. "If I can''t help it, you''ve been with me for so many years, there''s always a way for me to do it, isn''t it?" "Qin Shao, why?" Morson was shocked. "Jane foam was an accident that night. What''s the meaning of the lubricant on the escalator?" Shi Shaoqin sniffed coldly and was too lazy to argue with Mosen. "Besides, what good is it for me to let Jane Mo fall down the stairs?" Mosen said hurriedly, and his sight just crossed those who were still struggling on the edge of death. "Do Qin Shao think I''m Luo Songxian''s man?" "You''re not!" Shi Shaoqin spoke faintly. "Then why?" Morson began to breathe heavily. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were bright and cold, "then I have to ask you..." The words fell, and Shi Shaoqin''s gun barrel had touched Mosen''s forehead. The cold touch was permeated with the breath of death, and the pressure overflowing from Shi Shaoqin made Mosen swallow uncontrollably. "Qin Shao..." "I''ve been thinking these days," Shi Shaoqin''s indifferent voice came again. "You''re not his man. Why do you still come to me when you know my taboo that day?" Morson''s breathing had become dignified. "How did you annoy me that night?" Shi Shaoqin suddenly whispered. Mosen''s heart suddenly fell to the bottom of the valley, "yes, Gu Beichen said?" When he said this sentence, there was obvious fear... Even anger in his voice. Shi Shaoqin frowned invisibly. "He already knew what you thought of me?" Morson secretly gritted his teeth and dug his own grave, which made him lose his calmness even more. "It seems... That''s the answer." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes suddenly sank. Looking at Mosen and his eyes, he felt completely dirty! "Bang" across... The world, all at this moment static down. Morson didn''t die. At least, he won''t die on the spot The pain eroded his nerves a little bit. At the last moment, he was looking at Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful face. "It''s good to die in your hands..." Mosen finally smiled. "It''s also good." Shi shaoqinjun''s face was immediately covered with haze. "It''s a pity... I didn''t let Jane... Jane mo... Die... You, you were... Um..." What else did Morson want to say? J didn''t know where he came out and kicked him hard. "It''s all you..." J yelled angrily. "If it weren''t for you, Jane Mo''s child wouldn''t die, and she wouldn''t hate us so much, hum!" Mosen''s pupils began to relax, and a relieved smile appeared at the corner of his mouth If it weren''t for J''s foot, he would have to go through a period of torture when he died... But not now. However, what Mosen didn''t think of at the moment was that if it wasn''t for J''s foot, he would say something about Shi Shaoqin''s possessiveness and how it would affect Shi Shaoqin. Maybe this is the way things are Reincarnation always has a point, good and bad... All start and end here. In the bloody ink palace, the air is filled with a bloody smell, enveloping everyone in the dark. At the same time, in the detention center of the International Criminal Police Branch, a pile of men who haven''t had meat for a long time surround Luo Songxian Obscene words are disgusting. After all, although the body is still strong, it is old after all. But for these people, it''s always a good thing to have fun. Wailing, with the erotic sound of not knowing whether to enjoy or bear, filled the prison cage I''m afraid Luo Songxian never thought that he would become the people he once oppressed, or even worse. Gu Beichen is not a soft hearted person. Besides, because Luo Songxian and Xiao Yan left him and Jian mo. He will let Luo Songxian also thoroughly understand how luxurious death is The private jet arrived in Los Angeles at midnight. Because it''s winter and night... The air is mixed with cold and piercing breath. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing got on the plane, "ready, madam Shao can go." "I''ll go by myself..." Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen coming to hold her, and she said softly. "It''s uncomfortable on the plane. After sitting for so long, I don''t try to be brave, huh?" Gu Beichen looked at her with eagle eyes. Jane mopped her lower lip and nodded. Gu Beichen grabbed Jian Mo horizontally, and Xiao Jing had taken the cashmere blanket and covered her. The car is parked next to the plane. It is a spacious business car with the heating on all the time. Covered with a blanket, it was just the neutral position of going down the stairs. Jian Mo shrank subconsciously because of the cold wind Gu Beichen''s steps quickened, and his cold face was a little strained. "I''m fine, but I''m not used to it..." Jane Mo felt the man''s remorse and said softly. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and adjusted the car seat to a comfortable arc while the door was closed. Car, go straight to the mid level villa Jane Mo deceived her head and looked out of the window. The familiar night scene was full of melancholy. It was like leaving for a long time... It was longer than that four and a half years. "Would you like to have a rest first?" Gu Beichen asked softly. Jane Mo shook her head. "It''s uncomfortable to sleep here. Go back to sleep later." Gu Beichen nodded. "Ah Chen..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen asked softly. Jane moo smiled at the corner of her mouth. In her voice, there was uncontrollable caution, "can we connect the milk bag back to us?" Chapter 796 Xiao Jing drove by himself. He looked behind his eyes from the rearview mirror. A sad mood crossed his eyes and sighed. Gu Beichen pointed to his belly and stroked Jian Mo''s cheek. His thin lips raised a warm radian and nodded, "OK..." Jane Mo''s face rubbed gently in Gu Beichen''s palm, "HMM." "It''s all over, huh?" Gu Beichen leaned over and dropped a soft kiss on Jian Mo''s forehead, which was not gentle. "I understand..." Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth. Even her smile was a little ugly. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Jane Mo deeply and kissed her eyelid again... He didn''t say anything. The car drove all the way on the streets of Los Angeles. The speed was fast and stable. Finally, it stopped directly at the door of the villa. Gu Beichen carefully covered Jian Mo with a cashmere blanket before holding her out of the car. "Chen Shao, madam Shao..." aunt Luo saw that the two people came back, and her face was completely kind smile. "I''ve stewed the soup. Are you eating downstairs or should I bring it upstairs?" "Send it upstairs." Gu Beichen spoke faintly. "Good!" Aunt Luo answered and turned to the kitchen. Gu Beichen kept walking. Xiao Jing went upstairs one step earlier and opened the door of the bedroom Compared with the cold air outside, the temperature in the villa is comfortable. "When you have something to eat, I''ll wipe your body and rest, huh?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo didn''t refuse and nodded. After eating and cleaning up, it''s more than two o''clock in the evening Gu Beichen held Jane Mo, but carefully didn''t touch her wound, "sleep!" "Ah Chen, good night!" Jane Mo''s voice was warm. "Good night," Gu Beichen kissed at the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth, "my love!" This sentence is a little loose, because it is a little condensed If God has to have regrets for everyone, Xiao Yan is the regret she will never let go in this life. But if you have to give up, then... Ah Chen is the best gift she has got in her life. The night in Los Angeles is particularly long in winter. When the first dawn of the morning penetrated the thick clouds and fell on all corners of Los Angeles, the busy office workers began another day of life. "To night to night..." Mu Xiaoran Ran Ran Ran into the office with a newspaper in his hand. "Xiaoran," looked up in a low spirits in the evening, "if Lingyu international is not on fire, don''t disturb me..." she smoked a paper towel and began to pinch her nose. "I''m dying of a cold. I worked overtime until more than one o''clock last night." "Make sure you have the spirit right away..." Mu Xiaoran said and photographed the newspaper in front of her. "Look!" "What?" Drooping eyelids and looking down at the night [the emperor''s president and his wife returned to Los Angeles in a private luxury airliner in the early morning of last night, but there was no future emperor prince?!] The front page is bold and bold. At the bottom is a picture that is not very clear. There is a narrator next to it [Jian Mo''s stomach disappeared, but the emperor''s Prince disappeared!] Sure enough, Xiang night suddenly came to the spirit "Well, what does that mean?" Xiang evening looked at mu Xiaoran and asked. Mu Xiaoran pursed his mouth and shook his head. "I just called sister Mo, but I can''t get through..." "What about Chen Shao?" Asked Xiang Wanmei. Mu Xiaoran shook his head. "I haven''t played yet. After all... It doesn''t seem appropriate to ask Chen Shao." I can''t ask Chen Shao if the report is true. Sister Mo''s child... Did it flow unexpectedly?! "Also..." frowned at night, worried. "After work in the evening, let''s go and have a look?" At the right time, Mo Xiaoya''s voice came, and she came in with Da Xiong. Mu Xiaoran and Xiang night looked at each other and nodded one after another Mid levels villa. Li Yunze made some simple checks for Jian Mo upstairs, and Gu Beichen asked a few questions from time to time. Fortunately, the medical conditions and personnel in the Mo Palace are very professional. Except that Jane Mo can''t adjust her mood, there''s basically no big problem. "Do you know what you should pay attention to in the month?" Li Yunze took the stethoscope and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen nodded, "HMM." "Aunt Luo is also experienced. Just pay attention." Li Yunze looked at Jian Mo, "although you can''t do that, you still try to keep your mood happy..." Jane Mo nodded at the corners of her mouth. After all, she was the one who had given birth to a child. She knew it in her heart. However, it is one thing to be clear and another thing to do it. "Besides," Li Yunze sighed deeply, "you can''t cry anymore, otherwise, your eyes will really fall down the root cause that is difficult to remove." Jane Mo''s nose suddenly became sour and astringent. Fortunately, she held back, "HMM." "I''ll go down first. I''ll ask Dr. Ge to come and show you again..." Li Yunze said, looked at Gu Beichen and went out of the bedroom first. Although he is a doctor, his strength is not Gynecology, but also a man, which is not so convenient. Brother is worried about his wife. He knows... Let Dr. Ge come and have a look again to reassure him. Li Yunze went downstairs and saw Su Junli, Chu Zixiao and Mo Shaochen who didn''t know when they came. In the whole living room, the atmosphere was a little dignified, and no one spoke "This one, two, came quite quickly." Li Yunze said with a smile. But when I saw three people, each with different expressions, but all looked at him solemnly, I couldn''t help but say, "what are you doing looking at me like this?" "How''s Mo Mo?" Su Junli''s voice was obviously dignified. "I''m in good health and in a good mood..." Li Yunze shrugged. "Few mothers can be in a good mood without their children." "Child, really... No more?" Chu Zixiao asked in a husky voice. Li Yunze nodded, "accidentally fell down the stairs." "How?" Su Jun''s eyebrows frowned tightly, "foam is usually very careful!" He is the most qualified person here, including Gu Beichen. After all, Jian Jie was accompanied by him from pregnancy to birth and growth "Sometimes, caution can''t stop accidents." Li Yunze sat down and took the tea from Aunt Luo. "Thank you, aunt Luo." "Be careful with your young lady. Every time you come, you will cook delicious food for you." Aunt Luo glared at him angrily. Li Yunze immediately felt that the baby was suffering There''s nothing he can do with his heart. It can only cure his physical injury. But in my heart, no matter how high his medical skill is, he has no ability. "Yunze," Mo Shaochen, who had not spoken for a long time, asked solemnly after aunt Luo left, "is this matter of Jian Mo related to Beichen''s past?" At the same time, his line of sight had looked at Li Yunze deeply. Chu Zixiao immediately frowned and looked at Li Yunze. Only Su Junli, who didn''t know what Mo Shaochen said, looked puzzled and asked, "what do you mean?" His voice was filled with faint anger, "Mo''s meaning is that the loss of Xiaoyan by Mo Mo is related to Gu Beichen?" Chapter 797 Li Yunze didn''t speak, and the atmosphere in the living room became more dignified. "Li Shao?!" Su Junli''s face has sunk. Because he accompanied Jian Mo to welcome the birth of Jian Jie, he knew too well what the child meant to Jian mo Besides, when I was pregnant with Xiaoyan, I experienced so many things. The meaning of this life to Mo Mo is even different. Li Yunze frowned slightly. "Su sanshao," his voice was a little heavy, "I can understand your concern for ''sister''." He deliberately accentuated the word "sister" and said, "however, some things can''t be intervened by outsiders." In a word, Su Junli was speechless. "Anyway, the child has lost..." Li Yunze sighed softly. "I think it''s better to think about how to make Jian Mo not immersed in sadness rather than tangle with the past... This is good for her health." All the questions were blocked by Li Yunze''s sentence. What Su Junli cares about is actually Jian Mo alone. Whether Chu Zixiao puts it down or not, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo have a relationship with him. As for Mo Shaochen He always knew that Gu Beichen had a knot in his heart, that is, the years when he was kidnapped. However, he doesn''t know what happened If this is the beginning and end of causing some harm, as Li Yunze said, it is always between Gu Beichen and Jian mo. "Let Mo Mo be better for a while..." Su Jun said in a dignified voice, "if you can, let Xiao Jie come back and accompany her!" Everyone''s eyes fell on Su Junli, including Gu Beichen who came out of the bedroom and stood at the entrance of the stairs Su Jun lifted slightly from his sight and looked up at Gu Beichen''s deep eyes. They were opposite each other in the air. Gradually, they overflowed indescribable electro-optic flint. Gu Beichen admitted that he was jealous of Su Junli. Because Su Junli has accompanied Xiaojie for five years from gestation to growth. And he, even Xiao Yan, accompanied very little Li Yunze and others felt something wrong with the atmosphere and looked along Su Junli''s eyes Gu Beichen took back his sight indifferently and walked slowly down the stairs. "I''m going to pick up Xiao Jie. Help yourself." Gu Beichen said without stopping, "Mo''er has fallen asleep. If you want to see her, you''ll stay for lunch..." Car, on the way to Spencer. Gu Beichen has said hello to the school in advance. He will be absent from today''s class and the next few days. "Daddy," Jian Jie''s rare little face was heavy, "did Xiao Yan really leave us?" "Yes." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Jie. "Will you blame daddy for not being able to protect Xiaoyan?" Jian Jie fanned his eyes, leaned forward, hugged Gu Beichen, and said in a stuffy voice, "Xiao Yan is just going to be a little angel..." Gu Beichen''s nose is a little sour. Maybe he hopes Mo''er and Xiao Jie blame him. "I''ll take you to settle down first," Gu Beichen released after holding Jian Jie, "and then go home for dinner..." he paused. "In the afternoon, Xiao Jing will come and tell you the specific matters of exposing your identity, huh?" "Yes." Jane Jie nodded and looked cute, which was distressing. Gu Beichen gently stroked his head, then launched the car, to the registered residence to drive...... Su Junli is right. Now, only Xiaojie can distract Mo''er slightly. So, Xiaojie brought back should be a family caring person who can declare that Xiaojie is the identity of his and Mo''er''s children all over the world. The director of the registered residence heard that Beichen had brought a child to settle down, and the news in the morning was curious to greet him. However, it was obviously a little surprised to see that the children were four or five years old instead of newborn babies. But Jane Jie looked at the diminished version of Beichen. The people who registered residence were just surprised. What time did Beichen have such a big child? And, it was so dense. "Chen, please fill in this form." the registered residence will be handed down to Beichen. After Gu Beichen received it, he scanned it roughly and was ready to fill it in. But before the pen fell, Jian Jie suddenly pulled Gu Beichen''s sleeve "Huh?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Jie. Jane Jie fanned her eyes. "Daddy, what''s your name?" She used to be named after Mommy "Gu Jie!" Gu Beichen said without thinking, "or... What do you think?" Jian Jie lowered his eyes and said in a voice: "call Gu Yan!" "Huh?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "From now on..." Jian Jie raised his eyes and said firmly in his black pupil, "I''m Jian Jie and Gu Yan!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at Jian Jie deeply for an instant. The big ones and the small ones looked at each other like this. It was not a contest between father and son, but a confrontation between men. The atmosphere is a little treacherous. The registered residence seems to feel what... A little gossip. I feel it now. According to the age, Jian Jie should have left before Jian mo. And Gu Yan in his mouth should be the child Jian Mo was pregnant but didn''t see. "Thank you!" After a while, Gu Beichen said something hoarse. "I''ll take Xiaoyan''s love and double it to Mommy..." Jane Jie said seriously. "If this thanks can make daddy feel a little less remorse, I accept it." Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised an arc, rubbed Jian Jie''s head and said, "it''s not to reduce self blame, but to thank you for thinking of my wife." Then he picked up his pen again and wrote "Gu Yan" in the column of his name! The atmosphere of the registered residence is rather strange, not only guessing what happened, but also surprised by the interaction between Jane and Gu Beichen. Xiaozheng is too smart, but Gu Beichen gets along with him, but he doesn''t have the dignity that adults always have because he is a child ¡­¡­ New York, USA. A private hospital was shrouded in a tense and dignified atmosphere near the early morning. "Dr. Meno," said the nurse with a dignified face, "the life of the child you brought back is falling sharply. It has fallen below ten!" Meno was answering the phone. After listening, he was stunned when he didn''t have time to talk to the people inside. "What are you talking about?" "The child you brought back has fallen below ten!" As soon as Meno heard this, he got up quickly and ran out. He even forgot that the phone was still on As soon as Shi Shaoqin got off the plane, he called Meno. Before he said anything, he heard the anxious voice of the nurse inside He listened to the continuous voice inside, and a layer of haze shrouded his beautiful face. After hanging up, Shi Shaoqin walked back and forth to pick up his car, opened the driver''s door and said, "get off!" The driver didn''t understand, but he got out of the car. Shi Shaoqin sat up indifferently and didn''t say anything. He drove quickly to the private hospital Chapter 798 Shi Shaoqin soon went to the hospital. After asking about the medical guide, he walked to the emergency room. It took him about an hour to get here from the airport, although he was very fast "I''m looking for Meno." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was cold. The nurse seldom saw such a handsome Oriental. First, she was stunned, and then she pointed to the emergency room, "Dr. Meno is rescuing a baby..." Then she suddenly remembered that the baby seemed to be from the east?! "Who are you?" Asked the nurse. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and slightly. There was a trace of entanglement in the bottom of his eyes. His voice was even more embarrassed and said, "family." As soon as the nurse heard this, she immediately turned her mouth and muttered, "I didn''t have a family for several days. I thought it was an orphan? 1 Shi Shaoqin still heard her words. Suddenly, a haze shrouded his handsome face. "What are you talking about?" In the low voice, mixed with the smell of danger, "who is an orphan?" The nurse suddenly looked at Shi Shaoqin''s dark face, subconsciously swallowed it, and hurriedly said, "no, nothing 1 She tugged at the corners of her mouth. "Dr. Meno hasn''t come out yet, sir. You can wait over there." Shi Shaoqin looked back coldly, as if he was too lazy to argue with the nurse... Turned around and went to the waiting area. After he left, the nurse felt that the air around him was not so depressed and couldn''t help but breathe out "What a terrible man. 1 the nurse looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back and muttered. Shi Shaoqin went to the emergency room, looked at the closed door, slightly restrained the darkness of the bottom of his eyes, sat down indifferently and waited. I don''t know how long it took before the door of the emergency room was opened. Meno came out with a tired face. When she saw Shi Shaoqin, she was stunned. "Qin Shao? 1 she asked," when did you come? " "When you answered the phone without talking." Meno was stunned again and suddenly remembered The nurse answered her phone. She didn''t answer her phone at that time. "How''s the child?" Shi Shaoqin asked coldly. Meno whispered, "it''s stable for the time being, but the situation is more pessimistic..." The child was just born, and there is no so-called "survival consciousness", which is very bad. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, "the second batch of equipment you want will arrive tomorrow, and the medicine is already being prepared." "Drugs? 1 Meno doesn''t understand. "Yes." Meno frowned. "Qin Shao means... Has a pharmacist joined?" Shi Shaoqin still only answered faintly, "it will take at least a month... I hope there will be no accidents for the child this month." Meno sighed and shrugged. "Sorry, I can''t give you a definite answer." Human life is sometimes tenacious and sometimes fragile... For an adult, let alone a newborn?! Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly. He was already a little unhappy. But in the end, he held his temper. "I''ll see the children..." "I won''t be with you," Meno said. "Turn right to the third insulation room... Well, remember to disinfect 1 Meno reminded, turned to the nurse station, wrote the case, and then returned to the office. Shi Shaoqin went to see Xiao Yan after detoxifying seriously. The little guy is a little skinny. His eyes are still closed. If it weren''t for the instrument, he wouldn''t feel alive at all. Across the incubator, his slender fingers gently scratched Xiao Yan''s cheek. At that moment, Shi Shaoqin had never felt a trace of warmth in his heart. "You survived after having endured so much since childhood..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice, with an unknown softness, "your mother is so strong, so are you, isn''t it?" The voice of light eh, no one answered. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes crossed Xiao Yan''s small, bloodless face, and he didn''t know whether it was because he was too thin. He looked like Jian Mo or Gu Beichen It seems that there are two people''s shadows, but the combination of the two people''s shadows is too perfect, which has completely become his unique feature. "Xi Cheng said," Shi Shaoqin withdrew his hand and looked at Xiao Yan with deep eyes. "You survived under the medicine of silence and DS. Although progesterone hormone protects you, there should be residues in your body..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice had a touch of relief, as if he was glad to have used silence to Jian mo. "The medicine comes out. If Xi Cheng guesses well..." Shi Shaoqin''s mouth overflowed with a shallow smile. It was very light. He didn''t notice the tenderness himself. "You''re more likely to survive." Even if it''s just a little That''s hope, isn''t it?! ¡­¡­ After Gu Beichen settled down with Jian Jie, he returned to the villa. It was past 12 noon. He went up to see Jian Mo first. Before he woke up, he simply took Jian Jie downstairs to have dinner with Chu Zixiao and Su Junli. "Yunze hospital has something to do. Let''s go first." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered. "Uncle away," said Jane Jie, smiling and shouting as she looked at Chu Zixiao, "big brother 1 "..." Chu Zixiao twitched at the corners of his mouth. Although he knew the existence of Jian Jie, he was called "big brother" now. It''s not awkward. It''s all a lie. "HMM..." Chu Zixiao answered with some embarrassment. Gu Beichen looked at Chu Zixiao with deep eyes. He answered. He also understood that Zixiao had put down Even if you don''t put it down completely, at least, try again! After all, Mo''er is his first love, and he has done crazy things for love... But it is obviously impossible to put it down in a month. "Uncle, I don''t go to school these days. I have more time to rehearse." Jian Jie naturally handed Gu Beichen the empty water cup at hand, "well, if you can, can we rehearse here?" Su Junli looked at Gu Beichen and saw that he skillfully poured water for Jian Jie without speaking. "The piano will be delivered in the afternoon," Gu Beichen said indifferently, "the same as the concert hall." "OK, 1 Su Jun answered. He knew very well in his heart that Gu Beichen agreed that it was not just Jian Jie who wanted to accompany Mo Mo, but... It was always good to have more people and distract Mo Mo''s attention. In the dining room, Susan called. "Chen Shao, will you give it exclusively to Huaye or Miss Luo?" Asked Susan. Gu Beichen slowly lay back on the seat. The eagle''s eyes crossed the Chu Zixiao deeply and fell on the pine tree outside the window "Xiaojie is the child of Gu''s family. Naturally, this starting point should start from Gu''s family..." Gu Beichen''s voice was awe inspiring. "At the same time, we should promote the entertainment industry under the emperor''s banner." Susan was stunned and suddenly remembered that the emperor had set foot in the entertainment industry for the news of his wife... Although she didn''t care. Chapter 799 "OK, I''ll arrange it now..." Susan answered. After Gu Beichen hung up the phone, he didn''t continue to eat, but went upstairs first to see if Jian Mo woke up Just ready to push the door, the door was opened from the inside. Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen at the door. She was stunned at first, and then came forward and hugged his waist, "is there a sharp connection in such a heart?" "Yes." Gu Beichen gently hugged Jane Mo and kissed her raised forehead, "let aunt Luo bring you up to eat, or go down to eat together?" "The room is a little stuffy. Go downstairs and eat together." Jane Mo smiled at her lower lip. "In my dream just now, I seem to hear vaguely that the milk bag is back?" "Well, I went to pick it up after you went to bed in the morning." Jane Mo immediately filled her eyes with a smile, but under such a smile, there was something astringent that could not be covered up. Gu Beichen didn''t ignore Jian Mo''s mood. He also knew that it was a hard wound in his heart, which could not be cured in a while. "Zixiao and Su sanshao are also here..." "Yes." Jane Mo answered faintly. Gu Beichen has already entered the bedroom and brought a shawl to her. "Although the room is constant temperature, pay attention to it." Jane Mo smiled and nodded. After Gu Beichen put it on her, she took her hand and went downstairs together. I don''t know whether it was intentional or unintentional. No one talked about Jian Mo''s confinement and Xiao Yan on the topic at the dinner table. With Jian Jie, Jian Mo was in a much better mood "Mommy, when daddy''s piano is ready, uncle and I will play you the music we want to play in the concert." "Grandpa Su said," if daddy doesn''t care about me, he will train me to be the successor of the Su family. " Jane Mo hadn''t seen Jane''s face for a long time. She smiled from her heart, "if you like the piano, I think... Your father won''t force you to do what you don''t like." "Necessary." Jane''s bright eyes twinkled with confidence. Su Junli handed Jian Mo a cup of hot water and sat down "I''ll take a nap." Jane Jie is very clever to leave space for two people. When Jian Jie went upstairs, Su Junli took back his sight "Grandpa, they were going to come to see you too," Su Junli said. "I thought you just came back and shouldn''t go. I said to wait two days." "Have you reserved a place for me?" Jane Mo asked with a smile. Su Junli smiled and nodded. "Xiaojie''s public debut, you and chenshao must stay." Jian Mo took a sip of hot water and looked out of the landing window Gu Beichen sent Chu Zixiao away. They didn''t know what to say, and their faces were a little dignified. "Jun Li," Jane Mo lowered her eyes, "do you think I''m too greedy?" Su Jun frowned slightly, "people have bath hopes, naturally they will have extravagant hopes." After a pause, he said with a smile, "besides, you are within a reasonable range." "I''m not lucky..." Jane Mo mocked herself and hooked the corner of her mouth. "Mo Mo 1, Su Jun frowned," Xiao Yan''s departure was an accident. You''re not a person who lives in the past... " "Yes." Jane answered softly after a long time. She doesn''t know whether she will leave in the past or in the past. The villa is as quiet as water. Su Jun pulls away from the topic, and Jian Mo doesn''t continue to tangle with Xiao Yan''s departure. Outside, the winter afternoon sun shines on people, warm. "Continue or stop?" Chu Zixiao waited for a while. Seeing Gu Beichen not talking, he asked with a deep sigh. Gu Beichen stood there with his hands in his pockets, and the eagle''s eyes fell deep in the distance "Go on, no matter whether the ending is good or bad, we must pick it out and do it again." Gu Beichen''s low voice came, "in a sense, Mo''er will be hurt." Chu Zixiao didn''t answer, but just took out his cigarette and lit it After smoking a cigarette, Chu Zixiao asked, "are you afraid of foam being hurt or the truth?" Gu Beichen looked at Chu Zixiao and his eyes became sharp. "Beichen, I''m just guessing now. I''m not sure about the truth." Chu Zixiao frowned, "no matter whether it was grandma who caused Mo Mo''s father to die, this is always a thorn in the middle of you." Just because Jane doesn''t mention it doesn''t mean it didn''t happen. Gu Beichen knew that Mo Mo trusted him and didn''t even want to add the things of the previous generation to him But it was her father who died. Besides, because of Jane Zhanfeng''s death, her family broke up. "Check it." Gu Beichen said faintly, "even if you don''t start here, I''ll be ready to check thoroughly when I come back." "Huh?" Chu Zixiao was obviously surprised. Gu Beichen glanced at him lightly, "I''m not afraid of the truth of things." while he restrained his eyes, his voice became deep and far-reaching, "I''m just afraid she''ll get hurt again..." The atmosphere was slightly dignified, so Gu Beichen said, "that''s all." The truth is sometimes bloody But if you want to pull out the thorn in your heart, you can''t avoid bleeding. ¡­¡­ The night in San Francisco seemed particularly heavy because of Luo Songxian''s imprisonment. "Lord Luo is afraid that he can''t be guaranteed..." "What''s going on in the prison?" There was a cold sound. "The seal is very tight," said the person who spoke before, obviously a lot heavier. "After making a relationship, he only gave a little message that it was very miserable..." he paused, "it''s also very unbearable." "Really?" The voice of deep cold light Yi, immediately sneered, "unbearable? How unbearable can it be?" "Shi Shaoqin and Gu Beichen obviously want Lord Luo to eat the consequences..." The voice fell, followed by a period of silence. "Yin Ping, what are you going to do next?" Wang Qicheng frowned, "do you want to find a way to get Lord Luo out first and talk about the next thing?" Lu Yinping gently hooked the corner of his mouth and leaned slowly against the car. "Uncle Wang, do you think... Is it possible to get Lord Luo out?" Wang Qicheng was silent. If Gu Beichen really has XK''s help, as Lord Luo said, it''s very difficult. At first, there was a fluke, but when all forces were taken away, where else could XK have this message ability?! However, I don''t know why XK is willing to break the degree for Gu Beichen... Out of balance. I don''t know what XK wants in Gu Beichen''s hand? Can let XK help him like this! "What do you mean..." Wang Qicheng asked with a wrung eyebrow. Lu Yinping chuckled, "Uncle Wang, do you think... If Lord Luo is here, when can I be on the top?" In a word, Wang Qicheng''s eyes widened. "I now have the emperor''s shares in my hand. If Lord Luo can''t get out..." Lu Yinping smiled and became cruel. "Do you think I should save? Or not? 1 "Yin Ping, you..." Wang Qicheng just opened his mouth and suddenly his eyes widened, "huh 1 "Uncle Wang, the goal of the two people is always bigger..." Lu Yinping smiled strangely. "You''d better wait for Lord Luo first." "Don''t worry, I won''t make Gu Beichen feel better. You look back and see Lord Luo. Let him feel at ease..." With that, he stabbed Wang Qicheng''s military knife into his abdomen and twisted it suddenly Lu Yinping looked at Wang Qicheng, his face turned gray, and then released his hand with a sneer! Chapter 800 The warm sun in the winter afternoon penetrates through the clean glass window and shines on Jian mo... It''s comfortable and makes people stare. Gu Beichen is dealing with some work on the dining table. Occasionally, he looks at Jian Mo, who is covered with a thin blanket and lying on the long sofa he has prepared, with tenderness in his eyes. "You''ve been looking at me," Jane Mo suddenly opened her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen. "Are you still thinking about work?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips shallow raised an arc, "no mind." Jian Mo was stunned. Unexpectedly, Gu Beichen said so naturally... He thought it should be so. "Be careful I quit you!" Jane skimmed her mouth. "Take care of you, Beichen..." After a pause, Mo Tong smiled, "it''s just that you work hard to support me. I''m said it doesn''t matter to eat soft food. I''m afraid you''re tired." "..." Jane Mo was stunned again. After a long time, she said, "thick skinned." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo deeply, and the smile on his thin lips became more and more strong... But in an instant, it spread to the whole handsome face. The tail of the sun swept Gu Beichen''s face and looked at it from the perspective of Jian mo The cuffs of the man''s shirt were pulled up, and the buttons on the collar were untied, revealing his wheat skin. He was lazily propped up on the table, and a pair of eagle eyes seemed to absorb people Jane Mo looked at him quietly and suddenly found that she had really looked at him for a long time. "Are you handsome?" Gu Beichen asked in a low and magnetic voice. Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and said, "aren''t you beautiful by me?" Gu Beichen lowered his eyes slightly, made a gentle "um" sound, and then raised his eyes, "you are really beautiful, so he is not in the mood to work." Jane Mo''s cheek is a little red. I don''t know whether she was ashamed by Gu Beichen''s love words or by the sun for too long "Excuse me." Jane Jie stood on the stairs and looked at the unscrupulous loving parents below. "You have no problem at home, but can you consider me?" Gu Beichen and Jian Mo both looked at Jian Jie, one looking sorry and the other embarrassed. Jane Jie walked down the stairs. "I just want to go downstairs, but I''ve been waiting for a long time... You haven''t finished yet!" He seemed annoyed and turned his eyes dissatisfied. Gu Beichen took a cup and poured water for Jian Jie. While handing it to him, he said solemnly, "I''m just giving you a class..." "Huh?!" Jane Jie took the cup and her little face was full of doubts. Gu Beichen looked at his reduced version, "here you are. Be good to your wife in the future. Always remember to praise your wife is the best." "..." the corner of Jane Jie''s mouth twitched. "Daddy, you''re so serious and nonsense. Although there''s no problem... But I''m a little blushing for you." With that, he shook his head as if he couldn''t stand it, took the water cup and walked to Jian mo. "Mommy, although your IQ is not good," Jian Jie sighed, "but your EQ is still very high... It''s all right. Teach your husband!" "..." Jane Mo smiled at the corners of her mouth and felt a touch of warmth in her heart. It was the most natural way to get along. No one would mention Xiao Yan, but in such an atmosphere, she would be thinking If Xiao Yan is here, will the milk bag only dislike him?! The atmosphere was suddenly dignified. When Jane Mo reacted, she blamed herself a little. Of course, Gu Beichen and Jian Jie won''t give her a chance to blame herself too much At more than two o''clock in the afternoon, the head of Emperor Entertainment came to the villa with his host and photography. This exclusive interview is for Jian Jie. Jian Mo doesn''t participate The most important thing is that Gu Beichen wants to give Jian Mo a relatively clean world. He doesn''t want her to continue to be exposed to the public and let her future life be pointed out. Even the previous reports about Jane Mo in Los Angeles disappeared after today Man is a forgetful animal. When there is no trace, some people talk about it, but they don''t remember too much. Besides, the position of the emperor in Los Angeles and the things Gu Beichen doesn''t want, we still have to weigh. "Can you tell me your name first?" The host looked at the little Zhengtai in front of him with a smile. He was carved with powder and jade. It was lovely. Jane Jie is always gentle to strangers, just like a little prince, "Gu Yan!" Jian Mo looked at Jian Jie''s line of sight, slightly surprised, and then looked to Gu Beichen. "It''s unfair for Xiaojie to carry their lives alone," Gu Beichen said softly, holding Jian Mo''s shoulder. "But it''s also a kind of beauty for Xiaoyan to continue on him, isn''t it?" Jian Mo''s eyes were slightly red, but the corners of her mouth showed a faint smile, and her head leaned against Gu Beichen She didn''t say anything. She was just grateful. A man like Gu Beichen became her partner. She was more grateful and had milk bags. Whether five years ago or five years later, the milk bag accompanied her through too many days and nights that need to be adhered to. The content of the interview is in the manuscript. There will be no sharp problems. It is mainly about the existence of Jian Jie Jane Jie hasn''t seen the questions that need to be asked, but every time, his answers won''t be too much or too little appropriate. If we say that the interview team began to see that Jane Jie liked him because of his politeness and appearance. So, in the end, there is only one sigh Especially, people are born of life, and demons are born of demons Gu yante is definitely born by Gu Beichen! Minute by minute IQ crush, EQ is also super high, let ordinary people have a way to live?! At the end of the one hour interview, the photographer took some photos before leaving the villa On the way back, they were excited and a little hit. "I think you''d better not worry about anything else," Wang Lu, the editor in chief, listened to the recording. "Tomorrow is the first issue of fashion, and the emperor''s Prince announced the public''s attention... First think about what to eat overtime tonight." "Sister Wang, we have been ignored before. We thought the Emperor Entertainment industry had miscarried... Now that we have something to do, we will certainly work hard." Wang Lu frowned slightly and looked at the speaker. "I advise you not to say the word ''abortion'' now... Especially in front of the president and his wife." The man was stunned and hurriedly covered his mouth. Everyone knows that Jane Mo is pregnant. This time she came back, but she didn''t see her child Many people speculate that Jian Mo has physical problems. Gu Beichen actually accompanied her abroad to give birth this time. Otherwise, the emperor had so many problems a few days ago that Gu Beichen would not have come back "Fortunately, I didn''t say it in front of the president and his wife..." Wang Lu turned her eyes, shook her head, put down her recording pen and said, "get ready to work... Tomorrow''s exclusive interview will set off a big storm in Los Angeles!" Chapter 801 Gu Beichen looked at the person who sent the piano and asked Jian Mo, "do you want to have a rest?" "I slept too much last night and this morning. I''m not sleepy." Jane Mo shook her head, "besides, I''ve been resting..." "Young lady, the chicken soup is ready. Why don''t you drink it first?" Aunt Luo came out of the kitchen at the right time. Jane Mo smiled and nodded, "thank you, aunt Luo." Aunt Luo smiled angrily and turned to serve soup. "Mommy, play you a song?" Jane Jie is already sitting on the piano stool. Jane Mo smiled and nodded, "OK, let''s see if you have made progress recently." Jian Jie immediately rolled his eyes. "It''s like he has a high musical accomplishment..." "..." Jian Mo immediately choked and then stared discontentedly, "I don''t have music cultivation. What''s the matter? How to say, I also have a relative sense of sound... I''m still born. You can''t envy me!" Jian Jie was so proud that he didn''t bother to argue with Jian mo. "Gu Beichen, you take care of your son..." Jane Mo was dissatisfied. Gu Beichen said "well" and looked at Jian Jie, "apologize to your mommy!" Chien Chieh shook his head and sighed, "there''s a wife slave''s father at home, which means I''m very upset." Then he made a face at Jian Mo and didn''t apologize, but his little hand was on the black-and-white key... Began to play. Although Jian Jie left school with Su Jun since childhood, he is smart and talented, but he is still a child and has no way to compare with a mature pianist in his attainments. But for Jane Mo who has no musical attainments... It''s enough to beautify her audio-visual. Lying on the lazy sofa, the huge living room is full of beautiful music Jian Mo was stunned again uncontrollably... If Xiao Yan were around, it would be great. Thinking, suddenly the sound of the piano changed a little, not like the just soft, adding an intoxicating music style. Jian Mo subconsciously looks at the grand piano. Gu Beichen doesn''t know when to join. He plays with four hands, one big and one small Gu Beichen just gives a harmony to Jian Jie, but Jian Mo knows that his attainments are not shallow. Although it was a strange song, he listened to it again and gave Jane Jie perfect cooperation. Jane Mo looked at the big and small version, and her sight gradually drifted away I''ve always dreamed that the family can have such a warm and plain life. At this moment, it''s so far away, but so close. When Gu Ci, Gu Yuan and Gu Nanyi came, they looked at the big and small people playing the piano through the French window. Although I had been vaccinated before I came here... I was a little surprised when I really saw Jane Jie. Gu Ci and Gu Yuan called Gu Beichen after seeing Jian Mo''s report and went to Gu Nanyi restaurant to find her. No matter why there is no child, there is a four-and-a-half-year-old child... They are Gu Beichen''s sister. It''s inevitable to have a look. "Beichen can really hide well." Gu Yuan hissed softly. Gu Nanyi smiled. "Second sister, it''s not hiding your child. I see you''re angry." Gu Yuan snorted coldly again, "I think it''s Jane mo. if she hadn''t lost the small one, would Beichen be reluctant to let it out?" "How do you speak?" Gu CI frowned. "Is it Gu''s child? Will you go in later or restrain your mouth... If you really make Beichen unhappy, I think you''re willing?" Gu Yuan left her mouth and didn''t speak. After the three entered, Gu Beichen and Jian Jie stopped playing the piano. Just now the three of them could only see a small half of Jane Jie''s face outside. Now they were facing each other... They were surprised. Gu Beichen is an old son of Gu Moyuan. The age difference between Gu Beichen and his three sisters is a little big, so they watched him grow up. I saw a version as like as two peas in Beichen when I was young. It was a wonderful feeling. "Hello, big aunt, second aunt and little aunt!" Jane Jie smiled with a sweet voice. Gu Ci''s three people, including Gu Yuan''s heart, were suddenly shouted. Gu Nanyi smiled and nodded at Jian Jie, then looked at Jian Mo who had stood up and walked over, "it''s hard for you." Jane Mo''s nose was slightly sour, "thank you." Gu Ci and Gu Yuan also looked over. Originally, the three came to see Jian Mo and Jian Jie, who was well hidden by Gu Beichen. Even if they had any thoughts, they naturally wouldn''t say it at this time. After chatting for a while, Gu Nanyi was afraid to disturb Jian Mo''s rest. "Let''s go first. It''s inconvenient for you now... Sit down together after the moon." "OK." Jian Mo smiled and nodded, looking at Gu Ci and Gu Yuan who had stood up, "elder sister, second sister and third sister, walk slowly." Gu Beichen personally sent three people out "Xiao Jie''s identity will be announced tomorrow," Gu Beichen said in a faint voice without being soft to Jian mo. "let me know in advance today. I don''t want the news to come out tomorrow. When talking about it, you don''t know how to say it." Gu CI twisted her eyebrows slightly, and Gu Yuan immediately sneered, "this family, who else is there in your eyes except Jianmo?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, but did not refute. "Understand your mind," Gu Nanyi glanced down Gu Beichen''s sleeve and smiled softly at the corners of his mouth. "Take good care of Jane mo. it''s not easy for women at this time." Gu Beichen nodded. Gu Nanyi sighed, "go in, it''s cold outside." Then she looked at Gu Ci and Gu Yuan, "elder sister, second sister, let''s go!" Gu Beichen watched the three men leave before turning into the villa Jian Mo stood in front of the French window, with her long hair over her shoulder draped over there, quiet and unreal. "I''m sorry..." Jian Mo took back the sight of Gu Ci and others and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "why do you say that?" Jane Mo encircled Gu Beichen''s waist and gently leaned his cheek against his chest. "The disclosure of milk bags will involve many things... But because of me, it''s so urgent." Gu Beichen bowed his head and kissed the top of Jian Mo''s hair, "fool..." He spoiled and sighed, "what should be faced sooner or later... Besides, I''m Gu Beichen''s child. Who dares to say more?" Jane Mo drooped her eyes, "Hmm!" Gu Beichen rubbed Jian Mo''s head with his chin and his eyes fell outside. "Tell me I''m sorry for the last time... I''ll be really angry next time." "Well..." Jane Mo just answered, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone rang. He let go of Jian Mo and went to his desk to get his mobile phone. Seeing that it was Luo Xiaomi''s, he had a slight headache. "Little uncle, why can''t my little aunt''s cell phone get through..." as soon as the phone was connected, Luo Xiaomi''s voice came over, "where''s my little aunt?! you ask my little aunt to answer the phone..." Gu Beichen frowned and looked at Jian Mo, "Xiaomi is looking for you..." he said, handing Jian Mo his mobile phone. Jane Mo frowned slightly and took the cell phone, "hello?" "Ah, little aunt, you don''t love me at all..." as soon as Luo Xiaomi heard Jian Mo''s voice, he began to shout. Finally, he even felt wronged. Jane Mo was a little embarrassed. "What''s the matter?" "Are you feeling better?" Luo Xiaomi didn''t say anything first, but asked softly. "OK..." Jane Mo said with a smile. "I chased the news all night last night," Luo Xiaomi explained. "I finished writing the manuscript in the morning and came back to sleep. I didn''t get up until now. I didn''t see you the first time. It''s bad for me..." "You know, didn''t you call at the first time?" Jane Mo asked with a smile. "But I''m calling to work..." Luo Xiaomi muttered. "Little aunt, I heard that my little uncle has an exclusive." Jian Mo looked at Jian Jie, who was eating fruit, "well, it was given to the publications under the emperor''s banner..." "I didn''t have a big exclusive after sleeping..." Luo Xiaomi was a little discouraged. "I''ll see you later." "OK..." Jane Mo listened to Luo Xiaomi''s soft voice and her heart softened. She looked at Gu Beichen again. "Come here and give you an exclusive." "Really?!" Luo Xiaomi immediately brightened his eyes, "I knew my little aunt loved me most... Ha ha, I''ll come right away!" "Yes." Jane Mo hung up with a smile. Gu Beichen took the mobile phone and took her into his arms. In a low and magnetic voice, he asked, "what do you want to give Xiaomi?" Chapter 802 Jane Mo just smiled and didn''t tell Gu Beichen what she wanted to give Luo Xiaomi. "When Xiaomi comes, I''ll take Xiaojie to the company..." Gu Beichen didn''t continue to ask. "OK." Jane Mo answered with a smile, then raised her eyebrow and asked, "do you want to surprise yourself?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo spoiled. "Sometimes we have to learn to understand and pretend to be confused..." he was a little helpless. "You expose me every minute, which means I will be very depressed." "Well, popular pragmatics is very smooth." Jane Mo''s eyes were filled with laughter. "Must!" Gu Beichen laughed. While eating fruit, Jane Jie has helplessness on her little face He was picked up by his father and watched him show his love with mommy every day?! Really, they don''t think about his feelings The most important thing is that although he is still young, he is not invisible, okay?! Jian Jie felt very upset. However, considering that daddy was so attentive that mommy didn''t have time to think about Xiao Yan, he reluctantly accepted it When Luo Xiaomi came, it was already more than 4 p.m. "Eh, is my little uncle going out?" Luo Xiaomi asked while taking off his down jacket and hat. But when she saw Jane Jie not far away, her eyes stared like a copper bell, "lying trough, little uncle, I saw you when you were a child..." "..." Gu Beichen frowned invisibly, "is there something like a girl''s house?" Luo Xiaomi didn''t have any mind to take care of Beichen training her at the moment. He forgot to wear his slippers and walked to Jian Jie. Obviously, he didn''t change from surprise. "Although you are my cousin," Jian Jie said helplessly, "but I''m not an animal in the zoo. You really don''t feel very good looking at me like this." With that, he calmly crossed Luo Xiaomi and went to Gu Beichen to change his shoes. "Daddy, I''ve been a rare animal all day today," Jane Jie was obviously distressed. "Will I be surrounded like an extinct animal after it is exposed tomorrow?" "If you think you are an animal..." Gu Beichen said indifferently. "..." Jian Jie''s small mouth twitched uncontrollably and sighed softly. Be careful when talking to daddy in the future, or he will choke every minute! Luo Xiaomi didn''t react all the time, so he listened to Gu Beichen''s words, "your little aunt can''t be tired, don''t hang around for too long", and left with Jian Jie When the door was closed, Luo Xiaomi looked at Jian Mo with a stiff face, "little aunt, this... Is the exclusive of Emperor Entertainment tomorrow?!" Jian Mo smiled and nodded, "your little uncle said that Gu''s children should be pushed out by Gu..." "Well, it suits my uncle''s overbearing and awkward attribute." Luo Xiaomi nodded very seriously, and then rubbed to Jian Mo''s side, "little aunt, I miss you so much!" Jane Mo has a warm heart. She likes Xiaomi''s character. Although she is a gossip reporter, she is self-motivated and has not been polluted by that circle. Of course, with the background of taking care of her family, she is still very convenient in her work. "Put on your shoes first." Jane Mo said with a smile. Luo Xiaomi rubbed Jane Mo and acted like a spoiled girl. "The little aunt told me first, what do you want to give me?" She tilted her lips. "My little cousin''s exclusive is so big, I''m not satisfied with what''s too small!" Jane Mo''s eyes were filled with laughter, and even her sight was a little far-reaching She looked at the piano and saw Gu Beichen and Jian Jie playing together. "My love with ah Chen..." Jane Mo opened her mouth and then looked at Luo Xiaomi. "Is this exclusive OK?" Luo Xiaomi''s eyes were already bright. He snapped his fingers and kissed Jian Mo on his face excitedly, "ah, little aunt, I knew you were the best to me..." Then she hurried to put on her slippers. Aunt Luo prepared food and water for the two people, but told Luo Xiaomi not to make Jane Mo too tired. However, Luo Xiaomi Xu was too active. Aunt Luo was in a good mood when she saw Jian Mo and didn''t say much It''s also a mood break to have a chat with Mrs. Shao to divert attention. Luo Xiaomi opened the recorder, "little aunt, we''ll talk casually. You can say whatever you want to say." After a pause, she said again, "why don''t we start when you met your little uncle?" "It was a desperate afternoon. The sun was very good, but it made people feel very cold..." Jane Mo opened her mouth and fell into the past scenes. Jane fell ill in the building and lost her heart to all the strange men that night. However, she can''t be weak, she can only face it strongly... Even if she is not as strong as she imagined. One afternoon, a man named Gu Beichen appeared in front of her who was desperate to believe in small advertisements And she, and his story, also officially began from that day! Night comes earlier in winter. Luo Xiaomi stayed in the mid level villa for dinner and listened to Jane Mo finish her love story with Gu Beichen. After she heard it, the whole mood was filled with too many emotions, and she didn''t even want to stay for another moment. She just wanted to write such a story quickly "Editor in chief, I want the front page headlines tomorrow!" Luo Xiaomi just got on the bus and called the editor in chief. "The headlines have been fixed..." "My headline is about the emperor''s president and the president''s wife!" Luo Xiaomi gritted his teeth. There was no talk over there. I don''t know whether I was thinking or stunned After a while, I heard a voice over there, "leave it to you!" Luo Xiaomi hung up the phone, turned his head and looked through the window into the French window. The woman''s back "Little aunt, you deserve your little uncle''s love." Luo Xiaomi said, a smile spilled from the corners of his mouth, and then started the car to leave. After Luo Xiaomi left for a while, Gu Beichen and Jian Jie came back. "Chen Shao, young master, do you need to prepare dinner?" Aunt Luo asked. "I took Xiao Jie out to eat." Gu Beichen said and walked to Jian Mo, "why didn''t you go up and have a rest?" "I''m waiting for you to come back..." Jane said with a smile. Gu Beichen said "um" and understood each other. Jane Mo knows that Gu Beichen gives her and Luo Xiaomi space. Gu Beichen naturally knows that she knows. ¡°OK£¡¡± Jian Jie looked at his loving parents and shrugged. "I went upstairs to wash myself and go to bed... Good night, daddy and Mommy!" "Good night!" "Good night!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Jie entering the room and said quietly, "someone has been coming this afternoon, and you haven''t rested yet. Go to bed early later, huh?" "OK." Jane Mo smiled and went upstairs with Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen personally wiped Jian Mo''s body and slept with her However, after Jian Mo fell asleep, Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes and determined that she was really asleep. Then he gently pulled his arm and got up and got out of bed Chapter 803 Night, quiet people feel too quiet. Moonlight from the window gently sprinkled into the house, showing a peaceful atmosphere. In the study, the light shrouded Gu Beichen''s figure. The shadow is pressed on the desk with tweezers and other things on it. What is he doing carefully and carefully "Dong Dong!" Suddenly, the door was knocked down. While Gu Beichen lifted his eyes, he saw Jian Jie push the door and come in bleary eyed. "Daddy..." the little guy shouted. "Awake?" Gu Beichen put down the things in his hand and got up to pick up Jian Jie. "It''s late. Why haven''t you slept yet?" Jian Jie hugged Gu Beichen''s neck and hid his eyes between his neck. Gu Beichen walked to his bedroom with Jian Jie in his arms. "There''s still something unfinished. Just wait..." He didn''t explain too much. He just put Jane Jie on the bed and covered him with a quilt. "Go to sleep. Don''t you have to practice the piano tomorrow morning?" "HMM..." Jane Jie nodded vaguely. "Good night, Daddy!" "Good night, my baby!" Gu Beichen leaned over and kissed Jian Jie on the cheek. After turning off the light for him, he left the bedroom. Gu Beichen returned to his study and continued to be busy with what had just been unfinished When the original ring diamond and ring became a whole again, his eagle eyes stared deeply at it. The slender finger gently turned the ring, and Gu Beichen could clearly think of Jane Mo''s happy appearance when she proposed by the river in Los Angeles Thin lips, gradually overflow a touch of faint smile, that smile, full of relieved longing. Night, deeper and deeper. Emperor''s fashion magazine and Luo Xiaomi can''t feel the depth of the night, but they are limited to busyness and stories. In the afternoon, due to a problem with a design drawing, the whole department fell into an unprecedented battlefield In this night, it seems that everyone is busy! When the east gradually reveals the white belly of the fish and a touch of dawn penetrates the clouds, it highlights a new day and a sunny day. "Boss, I want to add 500 copies!" "I want to add..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± When the genius is bright, there are many vendors who come to the press outside the printing factory There is big news today. We all hope to get more. Unfortunately, the maximum limit per person is 500 more than the reservation. "If I had known that the first issue of fashion was such a big news, I would have booked more..." Someone complained angrily. "The emperor doesn''t pay attention to the entertainment industry. Who knows that one shot is the news of stunning people?" Then, some people began to complain But compared with them, those who didn''t make a reservation and didn''t even have the qualification to add, were more annoyed. Luo Xiaomi''s newspapers and periodicals have begun to distribute to everyone. "Xiaomi, won''t you go back and have a rest?" Luo Xiaomi shook his head. "Why, it''s silly to write about the love between your little uncle and aunt?" Luo Xiaomi pulled the corners of his mouth, looked at his friends and said, "we only see the money and rights enjoyed by the rich and powerful families, but how many people know what they bear behind them?" The friend shrugged and said nothing. "However, my little aunt only let me write about love. How many women have fantasies about love?" Luo Xiaomi stretched. "Er..." she breathed a long sigh and stood up. "I''ve decided that I''ll go forward bravely when I meet the man I like in the future!" Miss Luo, look at the corner of your mouth, okay She couldn''t stand rolling her eyes. "When did you meet a man you like and don''t move forward?" Luo Xiaomi looks at his friend "The problem is that when you finally catch up, you don''t think you like others so much." The friend said mercilessly, "if you are not serious about love and accumulate juvenile resentment like you... You will encounter iron plate next time." "Bah!" Luo Xiaomi immediately quit, "I didn''t meet a good man like my little uncle..." The friend chuckled and didn''t expose Luo Xiaomi''s jumping nature. "Well, if you''re okay, go back and have a rest. I''ll deal with the online page." Luo Xiaomi tilted his mouth and his eyes fell on the computer screen Above is her well arranged love story, a manuscript, which is full of the little aunt''s love for her little uncle. ¡­¡­ The sun penetrates the clouds thoroughly and spreads warm in every corner, gradually dispersing the cold left in the winter night. Jane Mo slightly turned over and slowly opened her eyes. Next to her was empty. Looking around, Jian Mo didn''t see Gu Beichen''s figure. Thinking that he probably got up, he lifted the quilt and got out of bed. Suddenly Jane Mo stopped her movement and held the hand of the horn, which was frozen there. She clenched her hand and then slowly looked away On the ring finger of the left hand holding the quilt, the originally separated ring was intact on her finger. Hands, gently loose, the quilt slipped. Jane Mo withdrew her hand. For a moment, she thought she was dazzled. The slightly warm touch came, and the blue diamond gave off a faint light, which permeated the hearts of the people. Jane Mo gently rubbed the lower ring face, the real feeling! She touched the corner of her mouth and slowly turned her hand. The tattoo on her finger was pressed by the ring... This feeling made her warm. The bedroom door was opened Jane Mo looked sideways and looked at the deep sight of Gu Beichen. "I guess you''re going to wake up," Gu Beichen came in. "Aunt Luo has made breakfast, washed and went down to eat, huh?" Jane Mo slowly raised her hand, didn''t speak, just looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen glanced at the ring he wore in the middle of the night and sat down next to Jian Mo, "this ring has special significance for you and me..." The big palm held Jian Mo''s hand with the ring tightly in the palm, and the ring face slightly pressed his palm. "Mo''er, this ring is not only for proposing marriage... Nor is it just to hold your faith for a lifetime." Jane Mo''s lips are tighter. "This is still all I would like to share with you!" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil tightly coagulated Jian Mo, "you don''t say, but I know... You didn''t tell me about the ring because you don''t want to dig out my past." "Ah Chen..." Gu Beichen briefly hooked the corner of his mouth and tore it at Jian Mo''s lips for a while. "If you can bear my past, I can also be unhappy with you, okay?!" During the inquiry, Gu Beichen slowly raised his head and looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight with firmness. Jane Mo''s nose was slightly sour and didn''t say anything... She just suddenly handed her lips to Gu Beichen''s lips. It''s hot and explosive. Without any prelude, Gu Beichen''s thick tongue is fresh and straight... Sucking the beauty in Jian Mo''s mouth. This hot makes the bedroom warm up quickly. Even, both of them are a little uncontrollable Chapter 804 The body hasn''t been released for too long, and the person in his arms loves him deeply... Gu Beichen obviously has some uncontrollable reactions. Jian Mo felt Gu Beichen''s heat, but he deliberately rubbed his body "You can''t!" Gu Beichen''s voice is hoarse. "I know..." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen who was burned by the bath fire and looked innocent, "so I should go to wash." Then, ignoring the arrogance of a place, he pushed Gu Beichen away and walked to the bathroom with a crimson face Gu Beichen was unable to laugh or cry. He endured his physical impatience and said angrily, "Mo''er, you did it on purpose..." Raise the fire, but not responsible for extinguishing it! "Hum!" Jane Mo kept smiling. Gu Beichen looked at her back and sighed. Then he looked helplessly at the place where the small tent was set up. He could only bear it by himself. Jane Mo stood at the bathroom door and looked back, with a bad smile on her face. "You can change the manual automatically..." then, she closed the bathroom door under Gu Beichen''s petrified face. Just, at the moment of closing the door... The original smile on his face gradually dispersed. Look at yourself in such a big washing mirror There was a smile left by flirting with Gu Beichen on his face, but at the bottom of his eyes, it was desolate. Jane Mo laughed at herself and dragged her inexplicably weak body to the dresser. The sunshine is only good, but the impact of early morning news is not warm Two news, one is Gu Yan, the new generation of crown prince of Gu family, officially pushed to the public, and the other is a love story of trickling water. Suddenly, it blew up the whole city of Los Angeles. Within half an hour, these two news became the front page headlines of various media Whether they are familiar with Gu Beichen and Jian Mo or not, one side is surprised that they have a four-and-a-half-year-old child and are more addicted to the love story written by Luo Xiaomi. "God, after reading this report, I believe in love again..." lie on the table at night, "ah, sister Mo, come and save me!" Mu Xiaoran, with dark circles under his eyes, "Andy, you went to school with sister mo. the existence of little Zhengtai... Don''t you know?" "Of course." Andy said, "I''m just surprised that you don''t know Chinese." "..." Xiang night suddenly looked up, "no one said, we didn''t know what to expect?" Andy frowned, as if it was incredible for such a "misunderstanding". Daxiong bought breakfast for everyone and came in. "Tut Tut, the whole Ling Yu is crazy. Men, women and children are all talking about Mo Mo and Gu Yan." Then he put something on the table in the tea room, "eat first..." Mo Xiaoya held the water cup in her hand and turned it. "When I go to send the design drawings, let''s see Mo Mo first..." she raised her eyes. "Xiao Yan is gone, but the child is called Gu Yan. I''m a little worried." If it''s to transfer feelings, it''s OK. She''s afraid of Mo Mo''s temperament and hides everything in her heart Mu Xiaoran and nodded later. They are also worried, but there is a problem with the design. Most of Xiangyu worked overtime last night. There are still many follow-up problems to deal with later "I believe sister Mo will come out." Mu Xiaoran said firmly. Combined with the news from yesterday to today, they also guessed more or less... I''m afraid Xiao Yan was not born smoothly. The tea room is a little dignified, but more helpless Every gain needs to be paid. Jane Mo got love and lost her child... Who knows which is the best?! ¡­¡­ Compared with the booming outside, the mid level villa is relatively quiet. Xiao Jing sent the first issue of "fashion" magazine. After coming over with the love story written by Luo Xiaomi, Xiao Jing had breakfast with Jian Jie and whispered about Gu Beichen. "My boss didn''t look very well early this morning?" Jian Jie said, "it was pretty good, and I went to the kitchen to make breakfast..." Then he looked at the breakfast that was not very exquisite on the table, and obviously disliked it. "Well, go upstairs to see if Mommy wakes up, and then go downstairs. That''s it." "Tut tut..." Xiao Jing shook his head and secretly feigned in his heart: as soon as Chen Shao looked like this, he made it clear that it was desire and dissatisfaction. "Uncle Jing, what are you thinking?" "I''m thinking... Whether Chen Shao can''t make love and hold it!" Xiao Jing answered subconsciously. When he finished, he suddenly found that the opposite side was a child, and the corners of his mouth twitched. Jian Jie shrugged his small shoulders, "in fact, I also think..." "..." Xiao Jing looked at Jian Jie speechlessly. Jane Jie was indifferent. "Please, I grew up abroad... There will be normal guidance for children on these things, and will not deliberately avoid them as in China, okay?" "..." Xiao Jing was speechless again. Little guy, this is to educate him while disliking him?! Gu Beichen ignored the two people and just looked at the love story When I saw the last sentence, my thin lips gradually overflowed with a smile. "In this world, is there a person you can''t give up? It has nothing to do with wealth and poverty, the past and the future... Just want to be sad, accompanied by him, and walk with him with joy. Perhaps, each other is not the most perfect one for each other... But hope that each other is the fetter of each other''s destiny and become the only and unique in your life! I love him, nothing else, just because it''s him..." Gu Beichen looked at these words with deep eyes. The smile at the corners of his mouth had spread over Junyan and opened in the deep fundus of his eyes. After washing, Jane Mo went downstairs and saw Gu Beichen reading a magazine in his hand "Mommy!" Jane Jie shouted first. Gu Beichen looked back. When he got up, he put down his magazine. Aunt Luo brought up the stewed soup and saw Jian Mo and Gu Beichen sitting down at the table "Wait a minute, Xiao Jing and I are going back to the company," Gu Beichen personally gave Jian Mosheng nutritional porridge. "Su San will come to practice piano with Xiao Jie later." "After going out for so long, there must be a lot of things. You don''t have to stay at home with me every day..." "When I went out, Xiao Jing dealt with everything that should be dealt with." Xiao Jing suddenly came to the spirit, "I am an assistant working as a CEO, but I still get the salary of the assistant... Even there is no year-end bonus." As soon as Jane Mo heard it, she burst out laughing. She thinks she can write a book, "on the year-end bonus specially assisted by the president of the emperor"! "I''ll send it to you this year," Gu Beichen said indifferently, looking at the smile on Jian Mo''s face, "plus 30% Xiao Jing was stunned. Obviously, he didn''t expect it to be so easy this time It was Jian Jie who said, "Uncle Jing, I think you should please your president''s wife more in the future..." Xiao Jing looks at Jian Jie, and then Jian Mo looks at him Listen to Jane Jie very seriously said: "because your president is a fool... Bomei people can throw a thousand dollars with a smile!" Now, Xiao Jing couldn''t help laughing But in Gu Beichen''s words "it seems that you still don''t want the year-end bonus", he almost suffered internal injury. Chapter 805 After breakfast, Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing went to the company. In order to distract Luo Songxian''s attention, although some people had solved the vicious holding of the imperial stock market before, there were still some problems left in the follow-up For example, the mysterious shareholder who has been hidden in the dark and has not been found yet. For Gu Beichen, only the problem that can be controlled is not a problem. "Did you find it?" After Gu Beichen got on the bus, he spoke indifferently. Xiao Jing looked back, started the car and said, "I can''t find..." Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned, "the more mysterious, the greater the hidden crisis." Xiao Jing was silent and said, "you have absolute control in your hand, and 5% of Chu Shao has signed the transfer. Now if you can get the shares in the hands of the second sister, the loose shares can''t afford too much storm." Gu Beichen looked out of the window and looked at the bleak winter scenery. His eyes gradually became deep and bottomless ¡­¡­ When Mo Xiaoya came to the villa in the middle of the mountain, Su Junli and Jian Jie were playing the ensemble of the concert Jane Mo was lying on the lazy sofa in front of the French window, basking in the sun and listening to the piano music. "I''ll take Xiaojie out for a walk," Su Junli''s voice was always as gentle as jade. "You talk for a while." Jane Mo smiled and nodded. Mo Xiaoya watched Su Junli and Jian Jie out of the door, thanked aunt Luo who poured tea, and then said, "we were going to come after work yesterday, but there was a problem with a design scheme, and we were busy very late..." Jane Mo smiled and shook her head, indicating that she didn''t mind. "You''re probably shocked by yesterday''s news and today''s news." Mo Xiaoya nodded with a sigh. "The milk bag was taken away together when I went to UCL. At that time, I had a little misunderstanding with ah Chen and didn''t tell him..." Jian Mo said simply, "later, I came back and didn''t make it public for some reasons." Jane Mo lowered her eyes and rubbed the tea cup with her white fingers. "As for Xiao Yan..." she pulled the corners of her mouth astringently, "I''m not lucky." Mo Xiaoya frowned and shook Jian Mo''s hand. "Mo Mo, the child''s departure is an accident. Don''t take the responsibility on yourself..." "But it''s really my responsibility." Jian Mo''s mouth is even more astringent. "Xiaoya, there is still a month before Xiaoyan will come to this world." Jian Mo sighed and looked at Mo Xiaoya. Seeing her frowning, she couldn''t help laughing, "don''t worry, I''m fine... People always have to look forward, but it''s also a lie that Xiao Yan left and could come out in a moment and a half." Mo Xiaoya was a little relieved to hear her say so. "You''ve always been the strongest woman I''ve ever seen..." Mo Xiaoya smiled at the corner of her mouth. "Foam, happiness is waiting for you next stop. No one will always be sad." Jane Mo smiled, "after so much experience, I understand..." Mo Xiaoya nodded. In due time, her phone rang. After Jane Mo waited for her to answer the phone, she smiled and said, "go and be busy, I don''t have to worry..." "Yes." Mo Xiaoya answered, "it''s really impossible for us to worry about your home." Then she stood up, "by the way, your love story is very touching." Jane Mo smiled again and blinked, "yes." Mo Xiaoya stared at Jane Mo deeply and wanted to see what emotion was behind her smile Unfortunately, she didn''t see anything. And the worries before coming came down a little. ¡­¡­ Chu Tang Law Institute. Chu Zixiao was having a small meeting. "I won''t take the case recently. Tang Yu will arrange it..." Han Zhenzhen looked at Chu Zixiao and had some doubts at the bottom of his eyes. "What about Mrs. Qin''s case?" Tang Yu frowned slightly. Chu Zixiao''s hand holding the pen turned at will. His eyes dropped slightly and said, "you take over." "Me?" Tang Yu immediately turned his eyes, "Xiao, you really flatter me. Who can make up for that woman except you?" After hearing this, Han Zhenzhen immediately sank his face slightly, "Tang Bian, this is a law firm, not a prostitute..." Tang Yu looked at Han Zhenzhen and smiled, but it was a fake smile, "Miss, why don''t you answer?!" "I..." "Just Tang Yu." Chu Zixiao slightly frowned and interrupted Han Zhenzhen''s words, "break up the meeting." The words fell, and Chu Zixiao got up and went back to the office without giving everyone a chance to speak Tang Yu followed closely and came in. "Is there something wrong? So suddenly..." "I''ll be busy recently." Chu Zixiao didn''t explain too much. "It''s estimated that there will be less from the law firm." "Huh?!" Tang Yu''s eyebrows frowned more tightly. Looking at Chu Zixiao''s tight handsome face, he asked tentatively, "ah Xiao, it can''t be... Jane Mo has come back, so you..." "No!" Chu Zixiao replied simply, "no matter how much love and unwilling she used to be, she is now..." he laughed at himself and pulled down the corner of his mouth, "she is just my little aunt now." Tang Yu shrugged, "if you understand..." paused, "you''re busy. Let''s talk about any problems." "Thanks..." Tang Yu smiled, "are you still so polite between brothers?" Then he turned and walked out of the office, but saw a woman with a food box at the door, "tut Tut, this girl is really more brave." Chu Zixiao looked at him suspiciously and heard Tang Yu say, "Zhang Nian has come to bring you lunch again..." "..." Chu Zixiao immediately frowned, "said I''m not here!" "Late..." Tang Yu''s words just fell. Chu Zixiao saw Zhang Nian standing at the door of his office with a food box. "Hey, we don''t have anyone to deliver food. Let''s go and see what takeout we have today!" Tang Yu deliberately said, looking at Zhang Nian, blushed slightly, crossed her and left. As soon as I went out, I saw Han Zhenzhen''s sneering face "Now the little girl''s mind is on the tangle!" As soon as Tang Yu heard this, he said with a smile, "you can also......" he supported the work grid, "really, sometimes... Men just eat the set of entanglement." "What arrogant, arrogant... May not work." Tang Yu took a deep look at Han Zhenzhen and left with a smile. A friend in the end, raise some points Xiao puts down Jian Mo and always wants to start a new relationship. Whether it''s Zhang Nian or Zhenzhen, what can capture ah Xiao''s heart is suitable. The atmosphere in the office was a little stiff. "That..." Zhang Nianzhe said to his lower lip, "I have a rest today, so I cooked dinner..." "I said, don''t do this again." Chu Zixiao said coldly, "you do so much, I can''t like you." Zhang Nian''s lips were a little tight, and even his face turned red because of Chu Zixiao''s words. "You can''t like me..." Zhang Nian bit his teeth. "But you can''t stop me from liking you... After all, even if I love you madly, it has nothing to do with you!" Chu Zixiao laughed, "it really has nothing to do with me..." his face immediately became more indifferent, "so don''t expect me to return your equal love." "..." Zhang Nian was stunned and couldn''t react for a moment. "Tut Tut, little beauty, it''s unreasonable for you to play word games with a famous mouth..." a joking voice sounded at the door of the office. Zhang Nian looked back and saw a man dressed casually and evil at first glance came in His hands suddenly empty, and the food box has reached the man''s hand "Just haven''t eaten yet..." the man ignored Zhang Nian''s sight and just sat down opposite Chu Zixiao. While he cheekily opened the food box, he said, "Jane Mo is a little worried about that." Chapter 806 When Zhang Nian heard Jian Mo, his body was obviously stiff and looked at Chu Zixiao suspiciously. Chu Zixiao frowned slightly, glanced at Ye Chenyu, who took chopsticks and began to eat, and then looked at Zhang Nian, "I have something to talk about, please leave." "Chu Zixiao, you''ve always refused me," Zhang Nian clenched her teeth. "Is it because you can''t put Jane Mo at all?" Chu Zixiao''s eyebrows were a little tight, and a handsome face was also tight. Eating, ye Chenyu suddenly stopped, looked at Zhang Nian and gave her a thumbs up, "commendable courage!" Zhang Nian stared angrily at the man who ate her meal, and then looked at Chu Zixiao without cowardice. "Does it have anything to do with you?" Chu Zixiao''s cold voice came, "please leave now... And don''t appear in front of me in the future." Zhang Nian clenched his hand. "She''s your little uncle''s wife. Don''t you think it''s against Chang Lun to think so?" "Zhang Nian, I need to go to the court to apply for an injunction..." Chu Zixiao''s voice was colder and obviously angry. "Don''t you appear within ten meters of me?" Zhang Nianzhe tightened her lips and wanted to say something, but she seemed to feel that if she continued to say something, Chu Zixiao would really apply for such a strange ban Even if, she doesn''t know, there is no such ban. But who let Chu Zixiao''s lawyer?! Zhang Nian''s eyes were a little red, and her nose was even more sour... She looked at Chu Zixiao with complicated vision, and then turned away with hatred. "Be nice to girls. Tut Tut, you''ve lost your gentlemanly demeanor in a car crash..." Ye Chenyu continued to eat. "However, the little girl''s craft is good and the meal is delicious." "..." Chu Zixiao glanced at Ye Chenyu and looked across the fragrant food, "you can''t stop your mouth when you eat." Ye Chenyu''s evil smile continued to eat, but looked at Chu Zixiao through his eyes. "But then again..." Ye Chenyu said, "although you are not abusive, and you love to keep polite alienation from women... But have you never seen such a girl?" "What do you want to express?" Chu Zixiao sneered. Ye Chenyu shrugged, but smiled unfathomably, "nothing..." He said this with deep meaning on his face. "I made an appointment with that man to meet in the evening," said Ye Chenyu solemnly after eating. "The news about Yuanda''s internal accounts in that year is true or false. You have to analyze it yourself." "Yes." Ye Chenyu took out a piece of paper and wiped his mouth. "But when you talk, you won''t really read Gu Beichen''s wife?" Chu Zixiao immediately sank his face, "you can roll..." "Tut Tut, how unfriendly." Ye Chenyu didn''t mind Chu Zixiao''s indifference at all. He got up and said, "just roll... Remember to hit my account first." "Yes." Chu Zixiao responded indifferently. After ye Chenyu left, his sight inadvertently crossed some messy food boxes. weekend. Under the double news of the emperor''s Prince and Jian Mo''s love for Gu Beichen, Su Junli''s world tour concert kicked off When I heard that the last track was played by him and the crown prince with four hands, it attracted the attention of the media and the public. Jian Mo was fully armed by Gu Beichen to the concert hall. As a parent, Jian Jie''s first performance can''t be missed. Of course, this is also the first real appearance of Jane mo after she came back. The media is like crazy Unfortunately, Gu Beichen''s protection is watertight. Not to mention the interview, he can''t even take a picture of his face. When the Su family saw Jian Mo, they naturally had to boo the cold and ask for warmth. On the night of the report, Gu Beichen equipped Jian Mo with a new mobile phone. Although they greeted each other on the phone, face-to-face care is naturally essential. The concert was a success. Su Junli''s people combined the piano, Jian Jie''s intelligent talent, and he was influenced by Su Junli since childhood... A song fell, which was heated by the scene, and an encore was added. The blessing of the emperor''s Prince is also Jian Jie, the grandson of the Su family. It seems that in an instant, it has become the focus of everyone''s attention. Time is passing quietly. People want to seize time, but they can only watch it slowly pass In the twinkling of an eye, it is approaching the lunar new year. "Dong Dong!" "Enter!" At the same time, the sound of pushing the door of the office came in indifferently and walked away "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing put the information in his hand on Gu Beichen''s desk and then asked, "the press release of the new year''s day has been sent out..." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered without raising his head. This year''s celebration, first, Jian Jie officially appeared as the crown prince for the first time; Second, after the last stock market storm, the emperor also needs to make a high profile But what the outside world doesn''t know is that it''s just a bait. "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing paused, "will Mrs. Shao attend?" Gu Beichen stopped the action in his hand, drooped his eyes and meditated slightly for a while before he said: "it''s not long since the moon came out. Nian Qing is too tired to participate." "OK." Xiao Jing answered, "I''ll go out first..." and he wanted to leave. "Let''s talk later..." Gu Beichen''s voice came in time, "look at her meaning." Xiao Jing looked back and seemed puzzled. "I''ve been bored in the house for so long. See what she means!" "OK..." Xiao Jing answered with a smile, opened the door and went out. However, at the moment of closing the door, he looked back and his face was slightly dignified. "What''s the matter?" Susan came out of the tea room with fruit, looked at Xiao Jing and asked casually. Xiao Jing and Susan went into the Secretary''s room together and took an orange to eat. "I think there''s a little between Chen Shao and Mrs. Shao..." he paused, "I can''t tell." Susan frowned. "Just..." Xiao Jing threw a petal of orange into his mouth. "It''s just a feeling that there is some caution between the two people. Do you understand what I mean?" As soon as Susan heard this, she suddenly understood, "Chen Shao doesn''t want his wife to be sad. Naturally, she will be careful... And if his wife doesn''t want to make Chen Shao sad because of herself, she will also be sad." She sighed, "in fact, it''s all for each other''s good, but no one can let Xiao Yan go." "Relieved?" Xiao Jing rolled over his eyes, "how to let go?" That''s my own child, or a child who has experienced so many things... How much does it carry?! "They say time can kill everything," Susan said weakly. "I hope it can heal the wound." But time is not everything. What is left and what is taken away... Only the cold and warm know. "In my opinion, one relationship needs to be smoothed by another..." Xiao Jing accurately threw the orange peel into the trash can. "If you have another baby, it is estimated that you will have emotional sustenance." "There are some waiting..." "Huh?" "Young lady''s accidental abortion and caesarean section is estimated to be that she can''t get pregnant again within a year or two!" "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corner of his mouth, "isn''t that such a sadness that will last for a long time?" As soon as the voice fell, Xiao Jing and Susan felt the gravity in the air. They subconsciously looked at the door... They saw Gu Beichen standing there. Chapter 807 Xiao Jing and Susan grinned secretly and saw Xiao Jing get up, "Chen Shao?!" Gu Beichen glanced at him lightly. Xiao Jing only felt that his eyes were sharp and wanted to "chop" him directly on the chopping board! I can''t get pregnant in a short time. It''s not what he said?! Did Chen Shao put his anger in the wrong place? Thinking, Xiao Jing looked at Susan with a hard face "Can''t get pregnant in a year or two?" Gu Beichen withdrew his indifferent eyes from Xiao Jing and asked Susan. Susan pulled down the corner of her mouth. "In fact, it depends on the recovery of her body..." "How do you know?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. He asked this smoothly, but Xiao Jing wanted to laugh... If it wasn''t for the wrong atmosphere! In fact, he also wants to ask. Susan doesn''t even have a man... She still knows a lot about women''s pregnancy! "The second child policy has been opened," Susan was unhappy with Gu Beichen, and she despised her tone and ignored it automatically. "My cousin wanted a second child, but she had a caesarean section at the beginning of the year, and the doctor suggested waiting." This normal caesarean section needs to wait. Besides, Jian Mo accidentally caused caesarean section, which is very harmful to the body! Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Without saying anything, he turned and wanted to leave "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing hurried up, "are you going out?" "Well..." Gu Beichen said faintly, "you don''t have to follow." Xiao Jing stopped and was stunned at first. Then he answered angrily. He looked at Gu Beichen. After entering the elevator, he turned back to the secretary room. "In other words, what does Chen Shao just mean by that attitude?" He didn''t understand, "it seems... I''m obviously disappointed that the young lady had better not get pregnant in a year or two." Susan rolled her eyes. "Xiao Jing, I''m really upset for your future wife." "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corner of his mouth, "what''s none of my business?" "Chen Shao can''t think of the problems we can think of?" Susan sneered, "I''m afraid Chen Shao wants another child to distract Mrs. Shao''s attention..." "Li Shao should have a reminder, can''t you?!" Susan couldn''t stand rolling her eyes. "It''s really someone who is used to fighting and killing..." she shook her head. "Young lady, in this situation, do you think you can have another child in the month?" "..." Xiao Jing was choked by Susan''s words. But think about it, it''s true. Gu Beichen drove to the florist, bought a bunch of flowers and drove straight to the cemetery Today''s weather is a little overcast, which makes it even colder in the air. Gu Beichen put the flowers in front of the tombs of Jian Zhanfeng and Su Mo, and the eagle''s eyes looked at the photos that had turned yellow after experiencing the wind and sun "Mo''er''s body can''t stay in the cold wind for a long time," Gu Beichen said faintly, "I didn''t come to see you years ago." The wind was a little bleak, which seemed to disperse Gu Beichen''s voice. "Sorry, I didn''t take good care of her..." Gu Beichen bowed slowly and got up with a dignified mood. He looked at the photos of the second old man with deep eyes. "Xiao Yan, I''m going to bother the second old man to take care of him." Gu Beichen didn''t say anything, but stood quietly in front of the tombstone How many seven years are there in life? From the meeting with Mo''er to the contract marriage, and then to so many experiences... It seems that in retrospect, it can take a lifetime to recall. For Xiaojie and Xiaoyan, he has regrets that he can''t accompany and guard them. Maybe... Only the arrival of another little life can really soothe Mo''er and his sadness. But what if this process is one or two years? He can bear everything... I wish she could be happy, that''s all! Gu Beichen turned and the wind gently swept the dead leaves on the ground, making his figure particularly lonely But in such solitude, it was a man who wanted to hold up a sky for a woman. As soon as Gu Beichen got on the bus, his mobile phone rang... It was Jian Mo, but in an instant, his eyes became soft. "Huh?" "When will you be back?" Jane Mo''s questioning voice came. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep, "anytime!" "No..." Jane Mo smiled. "I''ll cook today and see when you''ll be back. I''ll order some fried vegetables." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "you..." "The dishes are all washed by Aunt Luo. I''m just responsible for frying!" Jian Mo knew Gu Beichen was worried and hurriedly said, "moreover, aunt Luo looks tighter than you!" At the end of the speech, Jian Mo''s voice was obviously a little coquettish and angry. "Well..." Gu Beichen answered, "about an hour later." "OK, I''ll wait for you." Gu Beichen paused and asked, "why do you suddenly think of cooking today?" He said, "what''s up?!" Although it''s a doubt, it''s obviously certain "Someone said that we should properly understand and pretend to be confused?!" Jane Mo''s angry voice came. "..." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and smiled at his thin lips, "fight me back with my words?" "Huh?!" Gu Beichen''s smile has gradually spread to the bottom of his eyes. When he raised his eyes, the bottom of his eyes is completely deep It''s a kind of rich ink that can dye Jianmo all over the world. ¡­¡­ New York. Shi Shaoqin stood there with his hands in his pockets and watched Xi Cheng inject the medicine into Xiao Yan''s body. His narrow eyes gradually became deeper "When will he wake up?" Shi Shaoqin asked. "Qin Shao, do you think this is divine medicine?" Xi Cheng seemed a little helpless, "how can I wake up after injection?!" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly. Obviously, he was not satisfied with such an answer. "Whether this medicine can keep him alive or not..." Xi Cheng shrugged and carefully received the needle tube and medicine bottle. "Even if it works, it won''t be a day or two." Meno has been watching for more than a month. In fact, she really has no hope for this child Life is getting weaker and weaker. Sometimes she even feels that it is also a burden for the child to keep the child reluctantly. Also, I don''t know what medicine to inject now It seems that it''s all right to inject directly without going through clinical experiment and drug test? "You seem to doubt my medicine?" "Ah!" Meno wandered too empty. Xi Cheng suddenly came to her, and Sen Leng''s voice startled her directly. Xi Cheng snorted coldly, "if I can''t save him, then... It can be said that no one can save him anymore." Meno frowned and didn''t say much, but in his heart, he was disgusted with Xi Cheng''s arrogance. After this time with Shi Shaoqin, she had to come to a conclusion This man''s money is easy to earn. He will give you all the numbers you ask... But he must do what he says. And a very important point is that you should learn not to ask what you shouldn''t ask and don''t care what you shouldn''t care. Xi Cheng looked at Meno and snorted coldly, then looked at Shi Shaoqin, "Qin Shao, I want to observe the medicine closely. It''s inconvenient for small things to stay here." "Are you going to take the child?" Meno asked reflexively. "He''s not fit to move now." Xi Cheng suddenly looked at Meinuo, with a cold look of horror, "I''m not asking for your advice..." Meno frowned. Although he didn''t have much confidence in the child''s survival, he spent more than a month together. "Qin Shao?" Meno frowned. "It''s the best choice for the child to stay here... And it doesn''t prevent him from observing the medicine." Seeing Shi Shaoqin''s face calm and unmoved, she was more worried, "besides, if anything goes wrong, whether it''s the medical team or the equipment, it''s best to stay!" Chapter 808 Mei Sen smiled at the corner of his mouth. Those who follow Shi Shaoqin are capable. I''m afraid there are few people with normal attitude and character except that j is a child''s mind. Meno only felt that the whole body was shrouded in cold. She even felt a little like running away However, considering that the child has been taken out from the mother by herself and has experienced many dangerous moments, she feels that as a doctor, it is necessary to fight for the child. Shi Shaoqin still didn''t speak, slightly lowered his eyes, and his thick eyelashes covered the mood at the bottom of his eyes. The atmosphere was suddenly a little depressed. Gradually, the air was thin... It made people breathe, followed by heavy. Xi Cheng frowned slightly and looked at Shi Shaoqin. Qin Shao in his impression, when did he hesitate to do such a simple thing?! Shi Shaoqin ignored the two people whose eyes were projected on him, but walked up to Xiao Yan It''s been more than 40 days. The little guy can only live on drugs. He looks... Thin and pitiful. Shi Shaoqin frowned invisibly and felt pity?! Hehe He has another feeling! "Just stay here..." Shi Shaoqin lightly opened his lips. A faint voice came, but it was indisputable. "Xi Cheng, you are also here." "..." Xi Cheng stared, "Qin Shao?!" "I''ll buy it next to you and make a research room for you..." Shi Shaoqin converged on Xiao Yan and slowly turned to Xi Cheng. "I don''t want him to have any unpredictable accidents, do you understand?" Xi Cheng''s mouth moved back and forth, trying to refute something, but when he came into contact with Shi Shaoqin''s sight, no matter what... He could only swallow it. Although he doesn''t know why Qin Shao wants to save this little thing, he knows very well that if he decides something, someone refutes... It will often make you die miserably! Well, I heard Morson, who had been with Qin Shao for a long time, also died. Although, is really dead, or what... Not many people know. "OK..." Xi Cheng answered angrily. Then he looked at Meno. Obviously, he was angry at the bottom of his eyes. Meno''s blue eyes showed a little smile and shrugged with Xi Cheng. In that way, he was a little proud. "You study the next thing..." Shi Shaoqin said lightly and left the insulation room. When he got on the bus, he first called the people below Just a word! He wants the house next to the private hospital before tomorrow. It doesn''t matter how much it costs! After hanging up the phone, a phone call followed. Shi Shaoqin looked at the call. His eyes suddenly became deep. At the same time, he picked it up and put it in his ear. "Huh?" "Qin Shao, there is news from the prison that Luo Songxian is a little unable to carry." When Shi Shaoqin heard the name "Luo Songxian", he became more profound. Even if the other party is separated by his mobile phone, it seems that he can feel the cold breath on his body, "no matter, or..." "Want to die?" Shi Shaoqin chuckled, with a ghostly coolness in his voice, "how can it be so easy?" "Does that mean to treat him?" "I''ll send a good medical team over..." Shi Shaoqin''s indifferent voice spilled over his beautiful lips. "No, cure me..." his voice became cold. "Give a word to your people. Whoever plays well with him, I''ll find a way to let him out!" The caller shivered subconsciously. He didn''t quite understand how Luo Songxian provoked Shi Shaoqin... He just felt that he couldn''t offend anyone in his life. He saw the tragedy of Luo Songxian. A man who used to be so powerful has been proud of the Jianghu all his life... At this age, he ended up like this. It''s better to die. "I see." Shi Shaoqin coldly hung up the phone and sat in the car. Suddenly, his eyes overflowed and closed his eyes tired At the moment of closing, the pain gradually filled the whole eye. Clutching the steering wheel, the mobile phone gradually "bared" sounds, which is particularly treacherous in the car before dawn. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen went directly back to the villa in the middle of the mountain from the cemetery. On the way, he also bought a bunch of pink and blue stars. Jian Jie hasn''t been in Los Angeles recently. He left the tour with Su Jun and won''t be back in a few days The little guy is not around his father since childhood. Coupled with his high IQ, it seems that he is always a little more mature than children of the same age. Jian Mo''s previous educational philosophy was to let nature take its course... He did not force Jian Jie to mature prematurely, but he would not be restrained from maintaining his childlike innocence. Gu Beichen naturally develops casually with Jian Jie His children, in addition to the sense of responsibility is essential, the rest, as if he had no requirements. Give Xiaojie the right guidance and he will develop at will. Of course, this idea is only for boys. If you have a daughter Gu Beichen got out of the car with Mantianxing and walked to the villa. The eagle''s eyes are deep. If he has a daughter, he thinks he can be spoiled and gifted Think so, and he did so in the future! On the table, it is the most common home cooked dish, just like what Jane Mo did when she occasionally flattered him in lanzeyuan. "I haven''t been cooking for a long time..." Jane was a little embarrassed. "I don''t know whether the taste is suitable or not." "It must be better than me, so you can rest assured..." Jane was stunned and then smiled, "well, that''s true!" Aunt Luo put down the soup and couldn''t help laughing. "I''m also surprised. Chen Shaoming is great at everything. Why is it always difficult to cook?" "It''s estimated that God can''t see that he can do anything..." Jane Mo smiled. "Otherwise, how depressed we ordinary people are?" Aunt Luo listened and nodded very seriously, "also... Chen Shao still can''t learn all the time. In this way, madam Shao is still better than you." Gu Beichen smiled. "It''s all right, you can''t learn slowly..." he raised his eyes and looked at Aunt Luo, "this is also a kind of interest." "OK, we''ll watch you learn..." aunt Luo smiled and said, "I''ll clean up the kitchen." With that, she turned and went to the kitchen without disturbing Gu Beichen and Jian Mo for dinner. The taste is still the taste in memory, with the warmth of simple foam In lanzeyuan, Gu Beichen went back when he didn''t have a party. Although he wanted Jane Mo very much, sometimes he also wanted the food she cooked... Well, it tastes like home. "Come on, what''s up?" Gu Beichen asked as he sandwiched vegetables for Jian mo. Jian Mo subconsciously pounded the dishes in the bowl with chopsticks, "I''m a little bored at home every day..." Gu Beichen looked at her and waited for her to continue. "Ah Chen," Jian Mo looked up at Gu Beichen, "I want to go to work..." paused, "not to the emperor, I want to go back to Xiangyu." Chapter 809 Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes deeply coagulated Jane foam, and his heart was a little distressed. "Can''t it be years later?" Gu Beichen didn''t refuse, but asked, "now the weather outside is still a little cold, your body..." Jane Mo slightly drooped her shoulders, "I''ll wrap myself up, and go out and drive directly into Lingyu underground parking lot..." Her voice was a little muttering, and there was an obvious coquettish smell on her pretty face. "Take the elevator directly to the company, and you can''t get much wind." "But you have to run to the scene..." Gu Beichen said the problem in his spare time. "I can just draw, not go to the scene." "Your eyes can''t look at the computer for a long time now..." "I draw drafts and only modify the 3D renderings they draw!" "It''s been a long time to draw the design drawing, and it hurts your eyes..." Gu Beichen twisted his eyebrows slightly. After all, Jian Mo cried several times just after caesarean section. Although his eyes have been maintained recently, he still can''t be careless. Jane was a little annoyed. "I can only take one project at a time!" "You will not remember to eat when you are busy..." "Give me a call at dinner, can remind me to eat, and I can still hear your voice!" Jane Mo began to act coquettish, "just in time, I can remind you to eat..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is already deep and can''t see the bottom... Jian Mo''s words are obviously pleasant to him. "Husband..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Gu Beichen felt that he was yelled by Jane Mo''s coquettish "husband", and he had no temper. Besides, he also felt that instead of her being bored at home every day, he might as well have something to do, which might be better for her. "OK..." Gu Beichen answered gently. Jane Mo immediately had a happy smile on her face, and her eyes crossed cunningly. "I can see," Gu Beichen took a bowl of soup and gave it to Jian mo. "Now you know how to handle my soft part." Gu Beichen said as if he had nothing to do with Jane mo. he didn''t show it at all. In fact, he also wanted other things to divert her attention. As soon as Jane Mo listened, her smile was bigger and obviously proud. Gu Beichen just looked at Jian Mo like this. If she could be happy all the time... How nice? If she is happy, he will be happy too! "That..." Jane Mo took the soup handed by Gu Beichen. "The emperor has heard that there are new buildings after the new year?" When Gu Beichen heard this, he couldn''t laugh or cry. "We should go through the normal procedure..." "Eh, doesn''t the wife have privilege?" Jian Mo was dissatisfied, "someone said before... The relationship was made public, and the emperor''s design was mine!" "Well, there are still people who say that they will pay for it in order to get the right to compare manuscripts!" Gu Beichen answered like a stream. As soon as Jane Mo listened, the corners of her mouth twitched, "memory is too good, sometimes it will be embarrassing..." "Well, I''ll pay attention next time." Gu Beichen nodded at the end of his eyebrow, but looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight and asked vaguely, "I should ask Yunze..." "Huh?" Jane Mo didn''t react for a moment. Gu Beichen smiled at the corners of his mouth, "see when I can cook meat..." "..." Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth. At that moment, her face was red, "obscene!" Gu Beichen''s face didn''t matter. "I''m only obscene to my wife." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and molested him with serious eyes. He was also very handsome and suddenly remembered a paragraph [boys who play football and basketball are handsome. That''s bullshit... If men grow up handsome, they are handsome playing glass balls. If they are ugly, even playing golf is like shoveling shit...] Now it''s If a man is handsome and charming, his naked obscenity can overflow his charming temperament! ¡­¡­ The news that Jian Mo was going back to Xiangyu''s work blew up the whole conference room Yu Ziyun looked at the stunned expressions and leaned back on the chair with an evil smile. "Why, Jane Mo is from Xiangyu. It''s so incredible that she wants to come back to work?" "A little..." Qiao Zirong shrugged. Mo Xiaoya just frowned slightly, "can Mo Mo''s body do it now?" "So ah, work, can''t be heavy..." Yu Ziyun glanced at everyone, "well, that''s all for today''s meeting and adjourned." Everyone left the meeting room one after another. They were both happy and confused about Jian Mo''s return to Xiangyu. But Andy is the happiest. He feels beautiful when he can be a partner with the goddess. Those who doubt must be the people after Jian Mo went to England. They are jealous... Who do you think an emperor''s president''s wife will show her to work here?! But this is the world. You can''t make everyone like you Jian Mo started work on Monday. After Xiangyu was listed, plus its reputation, it has become very famous in Los Angeles. Besides, there is also a blessing from the president''s wife of the Emperor Many people who want to please Gu Beichen have no way to find Jian Mo''s design drawings. Unfortunately, sometimes you can''t even see people. "There''s an activity in the company tonight," Jian Mo said while eating the lunch sent by Gu Beichen. "I don''t go back to dinner at night." Gu Beichen had a headache. "Didn''t it make me eat alone?" "You can have fun, too?" Jane Mo smiled. "Isn''t it reported that Mrs. Gu ignored Chen Shao and Chen Shao would meet the jade star outside?" "..." Gu Beichen twitched at the corner of his mouth, "didn''t he explain last night?" "But when I feel up, I think I''m still very angry..." Jane Mo glanced. Gu Beichen frowned, "Mo''er!" "Well, I''ll be busy later. You remember to eat..." Jian Mo said in a mood. "You can continue to date that little star in the evening. There''s no big news recently. It''s very boring." Gu Beichen can''t laugh or cry, but he likes Jian Mo''s awkward and tight to eat some vinegar. "It seems that I can only stay in an empty room at night and wait for my wife to come back..." Gu Beichen paused. "Do you need me to prepare durian, keyboard and so on?" "..." Jane Mo didn''t react. When she reacted, her eyes were full of smiles, "tut Tut, President Gu still understands the market..." "Well, yes!" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows, "you can..." "Sister Mo, sister Mo!" Jane hurried to the fire before the wind came. She looked at it suspiciously, and saw that Xiang night said with a bad face: "the company''s computers suddenly had a blue screen... Then all the design drawings disappeared." As she spoke, her breath was obviously unstable, "the design drawings to be handed over to the government in the afternoon are gone..." Jane Mo fanned her eyelashes, then frowned, and even hung up the phone before Gu Beichen could say a word, and hurried out to have a look. It was dignified outside. Jian Mo clicked several folders. Sure enough, the design drawings were empty. This problem is very serious. Although it is not its own problem, it will have a great impact Xiangyu listed not long ago, such an event can make Xiangyu breathless. "What about technology?" Tang Haoyang''s dignified voice came. "Processing, but..." someone''s voice came, showing anxiety, "can''t recover." They are not professional IT companies. When they encounter such problems, they are confused in an instant. Jane Mo''s face is a little dignified. Maybe it''s because she has been with J for many days. Intuition... The company''s computer has been hacked! "Mo Mo," Sun Ke came in at the right time, "someone is looking for you outside..." "Jian Mo......" Sun Ke''s words just fell. At the same time when the surprised voice came, a figure rushed over and hugged Jian Mo, "do you miss me?" Chapter 810 Jane Mo looked at J and was a little surprised. Then she frowned and cooled her face, "J, did you do it?" Her words just fell, and everyone''s eyes'' brush ''fell on J''s body J let go of Jian Mo, with dissatisfaction on his face, "what did I do?" He asked. His voice was filled with unhappiness. "We haven''t seen each other for more than a month. Don''t you miss me?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth. She turned around, grabbed a notebook and turned the screen to J J is a computer genius. Almost when Jane Mo took her notebook, she had guessed what had happened. "Is it you?" Jane Mo looked at J and asked. I can''t blame her for thinking so Just after the computer was hacked, J appeared! "What if it''s me?" J snorted discontentedly. Jane Mo frowned, "J, it''s not fun to joke like this..." Everyone seemed to understand something and glared at the boy who looked at most seventeen or eighteen and was not yet an adult. J''s face showed anger. He said without explanation, "you don''t think it''s fun, I think it''s fun!" What?! After thinking for a long time, he finally came to play with Jian Mo, but as soon as he met... She not only didn''t want him, but also framed him! ¡°J£¡¡± Jane''s voice is a little heavy. "Not him..." Yu Ziyun''s voice came. Everyone silently looked at Yu Ziyun and saw him come in from the outside "Hello, I''m the person in charge here." "Hum!" J snorted coldly and didn''t give face at all. Yu Ziyun smiled and looked at Jian Mo, "I went upstairs with him. According to the time, it should not be him..." Jane Mo frowned and suddenly felt that she was too arbitrary. She felt guilty at once. "I''m worried..." Jian Mo explained, "the computer is hacked, which has a great impact on the company..." "Hum!" J turned his face. Mu Xiaoran had an eye and hurried to take over the notebook in Jian Mo''s hand. He saw that Jian Mo came forward and pulled off J''s sleeve, "it''s my fault!" "Hum!" J has a proud face that is useless to apologize. Jane Mo was worried, but she thought it was really wrong, "don''t be angry... OK?" J looked at Jian Mo, her eyes were full of guilt, and her heart softened, "I''m too lazy to see things like you..." "That......" Jane Mo immediately crossed her eyes with cunning, "can you help me deal with it?" J is a top hacker. With him, it''s easier than many technicians. "Hum!" J immediately looked away from Jane mo. "Don''t help me?" Jane Mo doubted, then loosened J''s sleeve, "tut Tut, want me to have a wool? I''m not uncomfortable to see..." J frowned and looked at Jane mo. When Jane Mo was in the Mo palace, she felt J''s temperament, "forget it, you don''t want to help me..." she seemed to turn around a little sad. "I haven''t eaten yet!" J said in an awkward voice, "just get off the plane..." Jane Mo smiled and someone hurriedly asked, "I''ll buy it. What do you like to eat?" J glanced at the speaker angrily, as if he was too busy. He looked at Jian Mo again and continued, "I don''t have a place to live..." Everyone can see that the child is looking for Jane Mo for attention and comfort... Suddenly, no one answered. Jane Mo turned and said with a smile, "live with me?" "Is Gu Beichen willing?" J skim. "He doesn''t want to, you paralyze the whole emperor''s computer..." Jian Mo suggested. However, the people listening next to them have black lines on their faces Is it really good to pit your husband like this?! J added up, as if he thought it was feasible, so he agreed without difficulty. "Go to my office!" Yu Ziyun said, turned and walked outside the design department. Jian Mo understood Yu Ziyun''s meaning. After all, j is a hacker. Doing this in front of the public has always had a bad impact. "Yu Ziyun ordered the fast food and sent it to sun Ziyun''s Office......". "OK!" Sun Ke answered. People looked at Jian Mo with J and followed Yu Ziyun into the office before they began to talk "What does this j have to do with Jane Mo?" "Who knows? But it should be a computer genius..." "It doesn''t look big, but the appearance of foam should be very powerful..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± "I''m worried about whether I can recover the data... God, I drew it last night!" After the voice of concern came, everyone immediately paid attention to their own design drawings. After all, it''s about interests! However, it is clear that these people''s concerns are superfluous. With J, he not only found the information, but also set many traps on Xiangyu''s firewall. As long as someone wants to hack his computer, he will be attacked by the Trojan horse program he set. "I tracked the other party''s IP..." J''s fingers quickly drifted on the keyboard and looked at Jane Mo, "Jane Mo, do you want me to kill the other party?" Jane Mo frowned slightly and looked at Yu Ziyun. "Do you know who the other party is?" Yu Ziyun asked. J checked the IP address, "it''s a public Internet cafe..." "Give it to the internet police!" Yu Ziyun pondered and said, "no matter who the other party is, it''s not good for us to solve it privately." "But I''ve hacked the Internet cafe..." J looked innocent. "..." Yu Ziyun took a puff from the corner of his mouth and then laughed. He didn''t know what to say. Jian Mo shrugged and got used to J''s handling... After all, how can people who follow Shi Shaoqin manage so much?! Thinking of Shi Shaoqin, the expression on Jian Mo''s face gradually converged, and then a touch of sadness crossed his eyes. However, it soon disappeared... So fast that Yu Ziyun and j didn''t find it. In the afternoon, J squatted in Xiangyu and kept pestering Jane mo. if she didn''t accompany him, she would walk around Jian Mo finally got angry, so he obediently sat aside and took a notebook to play games. "Do you want to have dinner with us?" Xiangwan likes the big boy very much. She thinks it makes sense to say that genius is crazy. "I''ll go if Jane Mo goes..." J glanced. "Sister Mo, go!" "Then I''ll go too..." ¡°OK£¡¡± Xiangwan answered and went to tell Sun Ke that he had booked an extra seat. Xiangyu''s dinner was held in a very high-end cafeteria. J hasn''t had dinner with many people for a long time and feels very fresh. Moreover, Xiangyu''s people are also very friendly to him However, he felt that many people were not very friendly to Jane mo. "Why do those people look so annoying?" J has been stuck with Jane foam, holding a plate in his hand and pinching everything he sees. "I hate you watching?" Jane Mo glanced, "can you finish so much?" "I haven''t eaten..." The implication is that I want to try it. Jane Mo shook her head and went to their table with J. "Jianmo is delicious..." after J tasted a piece of cake, he handed another piece to Jianmo''s mouth, "you taste it!" Before Jane Mo opened her mouth, she felt a sharp line of sight projected Chapter 811 The people who ate also felt that there was something wrong with the atmosphere. Subconsciously, they looked at one place Gu Beichen''s cold face was covered with clouds, and his eagle eyes shot out two pure lights like an ice cone, looking at the back of J''s head. "You eat, it''s really delicious!" J didn''t find anything wrong at all and handed it forward again. "Tut Tut, the air is so sour..." Xiang night took the lead in opening his mouth. Mu Xiaoran nodded solemnly, "the vinegar in the whole restaurant can''t match." Mo Xiaoya looked at the two people waiting for a good play and said with a smile, "J is a child. Can Gu always be jealous of children?" "That''s not necessarily..." Mu Xiaoran glanced. "In the eyes of this man, as long as they are of the same sex, they are all enemies." "Xiaoran is right!" I agreed with you that night. People''s eyes fell on Gu Beichen, and they saw him walking indifferently towards J, and then coldly took off the cake he handed to Jian mo J was stunned and found Gu Beichen coming. "Why are you here?" J''s obvious dislike. Gu Beichen stood there indifferently, completely ignoring everyone''s sight, "I should ask you this sentence." "I''m looking for Jane mo..." J said naturally. "Then they asked me to have dinner together." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and saw her smiling at the corners of her mouth. Her face was a little heavy. "Mr. Gu, sit down!" Sun Ke was on Jian Mo''s left, so he got up and gave way. Gu Beichen didn''t shirk, "thank you!" "Why are you here?" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen with a dark face and asked with a smile. Gu Beichen was clearly unhappy on his cold face, but his voice was still very soft: "come and invite President Yu to the emperor''s New Year celebration!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth. The Emperor invited Xiangyu to participate in the New Year celebration. For Xiangyu, it was a great face... The president invited him in person? "That''s a terrible excuse!" "It''s my honor to invite President Gu..." Yu Ziyun and j spoke almost at the same time. Suddenly, the atmosphere was a little awkward. Gu Beichen directly ignored J and looked at Yu Ziyun opposite. "President Yu is also a dark horse in the industry this year. The emperor has always been generous in cooperation opportunities for promising companies." "What you said is really high sounding..." J is tearing down the stage every minute. The atmosphere became more and more awkward and even dignified. After all, the influence of emperor and Gu Beichen in Los Angeles can not be ignored At this moment, J choked Gu Beichen, and everyone could not help sweating for him. In fact, J doesn''t hate Gu Beichen so much, but subconsciously, he thinks that Jian Mo is all his as soon as he appears. He''s just dissatisfied with this. But who is Gu Beichen? On such occasions, he originally came to find his wife. Naturally, he won''t be angry with a child However, because of his appearance, the original harmonious and relaxed dinner obviously became restrained. "I''ve almost eaten..." Jane Mo didn''t want to affect everyone''s dinner. In addition, she didn''t participate in the next activities. She simply decided to leave with two men, one big and one small. Yu Ziyun and others didn''t stay, but looked at the back of the three people leaving and pulled the corners of his mouth. "Didn''t president Gu send you an invitation before?" Luo Xiaojing asked with her chin supported. Yu Ziyun picked his eyebrows and said with an evil smile, "I''m guessing the scandal last night. They''re making trouble..." he said, laughing, "someone has to find a step down, isn''t it?" Luo Xiaojing glanced at Yu Ziyun obliquely, "Jian Mo won''t believe that kind of gossip at all, okay?" "You don''t understand..." Yu Ziyun hugged Luo Xiaojing and leaned over. "It''s called fun!" Luo Xiaojing pushed Yu Ziyun away in a domineering way, "so, when you have an affair later, I still think you are interesting..." She snorted coldly and frowned at the laughter. "I don''t know why, I always think Jane is a little strange." "No?" Later, he subconsciously retorted, "it''s still the same as before!" Mu Xiaoran nodded Luo Xiaojing smiled and said nothing. They didn''t understand what Xiang Wan had experienced when he was young. Jane Mo is now the same as before. That''s strange The child of nine months has been abandoned. It''s the same as before. There are only a few possibilities! One is heartless and heartless, and doesn''t expect children at all. The other is to force a smile. And one of the most feared is... Trying to cover up deeper sadness with the most common. Jane Mo is definitely not the one in front. It is likely to be the two in the back Luo Xiaojing is a little thoughtful, but she thinks that Jian Mo''s character is so strong and has experienced so much that she should not fall into a sad dead end... Maybe she just doesn''t want everyone to worry about her. ¡­¡­ Back to the villa, aunt Luo met many people and was stunned. "Aunt Luo, he is j and will live here recently..." Jane Mo said with a smile. "Please tidy up the downstairs guest room." "OK." Aunt Luo answered with a smile and went to clean up. "You didn''t eat anything just now. Shall I get you some?" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen with a tight face and asked with a smile. "I''ll eat whatever I get." As soon as J heard that Jane was going to do it himself, he hurried to say. Gu Beichen glanced sideways at him and said faintly, "I ate when I went to find you. It''s getting late. You go upstairs to wash first, huh?" "But I still want to eat..." J was dissatisfied. Gu Beichen ignored him at all, but deeply coagulated Jian mo. Jane Mo felt that the man was competing with a child However, he didn''t brush his mind and nodded. "J, when Aunt Luo is ready, you can rest early... If you can get up tomorrow, you can go to work with me." J was originally unhappy because Gu Beichen didn''t let Jian Mo cook food, but she said that she would go to work together tomorrow and nodded in a hurry. "I''ll go up first..." Jian Mo stood on tiptoe and kissed Gu Beichen at the corner of his mouth, then turned and went upstairs. The original smile on his face gradually disappeared at the moment of turning around Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo into the bedroom and then turned to j, "come out with me!" Then he turned and walked out. J frowned and was reluctant, but he still went out with Gu Beichen "Shaoqin allowed you to come?" Gu Beichen looked at J. without the tension of just "jealous", Jun''s face was completely indifferent. J glanced. "Qin Shao doesn''t care about me... I think Jane Mo came here!" "Where is he?" Gu Beichen asked again. "I don''t know. It''s not in the Mo palace anyway." J said, kicking the dead grass on the ground with his feet bored, "I haven''t seen him for many days." Gu Beichen stared at J deeply until he looked at him a little hairy. "Why are you looking at me like that?" J frowned, "Qin Shao doesn''t belong to me... Besides, you and Jane Mo are back. Why do you ask him?" "I just want to know one thing." "What?" J asked subconsciously. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes suddenly became deep and dyed with ink space. The vastness made people afraid. Timely, gentle and low voice, overflow thin lips "Isn''t Xiao Yan dead?" Chapter 812 J stared at Gu Beichen. "What?" He was even surprised, "how is it possible?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. When he was in Mo palace, he didn''t think deeply, but recently, he always felt that Xiao Yan didn''t leave It''s a kind of perception from my father, which is somewhat inexplicable. However, he was so convinced... He didn''t know where the confidence came from, and he didn''t know whether it was because he was unwilling to face Xiao Yan''s departure. He checked Shi Shaoqin''s whereabouts. He was a little erratic. In the end, where he went, he could leave a lot of smoke bombs. Shi Shaoqin is confident and conceited. When did he begin to like doing so many tails?! "I saw the child buried with my own eyes..." J glanced. "So, how can I live?" He drooped his shoulders and remembered the scene at that time. He was a little bored. Originally there were living things, but finally they died It''s no fun for Jane Mo to follow closely. She''s always in a daze and won''t laugh. Fortunately, seeing her today is the same as before J thought that he had just met, and Jane Mo thought he was angry about hacking Xiangyu computer, so he felt happy. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. J didn''t seem to be lying... At least, J lied in front of him. There''s no such number yet. Is he unwilling to face the reality?! Hehe Gu Beichen secretly laughed at himself. He was like this. Can Mo''er''s heart be relieved?! "Gu Beichen''s voice warned her not to mention anything......". J tilted his mouth and wanted to refute, but he didn''t want Jane to be unhappy and replied stiffly. The next day, Los Angeles was sunny, as if the footsteps of spring were nearby. The draft of the emperor''s New Year celebration was officially released in various media. This time, a large number of people from the military, political, commercial and entertainment circles were invited. It can be said that the emperor has never held such an annual meeting. Naturally, the prize this time is rich and greedy. The whole city of Los Angeles and even the surrounding cities are discussing the annual meeting of Los Angeles. With those exposed prizes, they lament that they are not emperors and have no chance to be greedy. Most importantly, there is a mysterious ultimate award that has not been announced, which has aroused the curiosity of the people. J has nothing to do when he comes to Los Angeles, and he can''t follow Jane Mo to Xiangyu every day Finally, Gu Beichen found something for him to do and directly threw him to the emperor''s IT development department... Specifically looking for program vulnerabilities. J thinks it''s boring. Finding loopholes is his strength. But when people in the IT department meet such a genius, how can they let it go? Seeing that J didn''t want to, he hurried to find the president to solve it Don''t you think people in beimochen have a kind of fun to despise? Do you have a kind of fun to despise Next, J happily went back to the program department to catch insects. This is the world. One thing is equal to another J listens to Shi Shaoqin because he affirms his ability. And J''s listening to Jian Mo is completely a fit of magnetic field... Or because Jian Mo has the smell of "mother" he craves. When everything seems to be back on track, the emperor''s new year is finally coming. The event was held at the Los Angeles hotel. Due to the arrangement in advance, the whole hotel was contracted by the emperor on that day. When you are tired, you can go to the guest room to rest. Naturally, no one can stop what happens. "Sister Mo, what do you think of my skirt?" Xiang Wanbi compared the pink green strapless and puffy skirts on his hands, and his eyes were full of a smile of praise. "Online shopping is more than 100 cheaper than specialty stores!" "Good looking is good looking," Mo Xiaoya took hot water to Jane Mo, "but how do you feel a yard smaller?" "I deliberately took a yard smaller," he said, raising his eyebrows to the evening. "To show my proud size, I don''t know if I can catch a ''President Gu''!" As soon as Mo Xiaoya heard it, she immediately ''poof Pooh'' laughed. "Sister Mo, don''t be too surprised that she forgot to take medicine today..." Mu Xiaoran said directly. Xu is the same age, but also because of Jian Mo''s supporters. Now mu Xiaoran and Xiangwan are a pair of official CP combinations of Xiangyu... The relationship is very good. "The airport just can''t see other people''s waves..." Xiang night responded impolitely. "..." Mu Xiaoran immediately looked up and held his chest up, "I''m low-key!" "Yes, you keep a low profile..." Xiang Xiaose said with a smile, "so I need a high profile to set off your low profile." Watching the two people start arguing about size, Jane Mo''s eyes are filled with a smile. Tomorrow is the emperor''s New Year celebration, and then the Lunar New Year holiday will begin in a few days It''s another year to turn. Time flies. Jane Mo was happy, happy, and inexplicably began to be sad But her mind was empty. She couldn''t say why she was sad. After work, Jian Mo drove to the mid level villa After a kindergarten, teachers are lining up to wait for their parents to pick them up. Jane Mo looked sideways. The children were smiling happily one by one after school. They were so young that people couldn''t help but want to see more Suddenly! Jane Mo widened her eyes, looked at the person crossing the road in front, and subconsciously stepped on the brake. "Squeak -" The harsh brake sound sounded on the road with a strange sound. Just when everyone was attracted by such a sound, a ''Bang'' followed The whole person of Jian Mo was tilted forward by the impact force, and her chest hit the steering wheel. When she felt pain, she cracked her mouth. Jane Mo looked up. The person standing there scared by her car suddenly disappeared?! Ignoring the pain in her chest, Jane Mo hurried to open the door and get off Originally, she stopped the car, but the collision behind her back... Won''t have a serial reaction?! Jane Mo ran to the car with a God and saw the middle-aged woman covering her legs on the ground. She was so scared that her face turned white and hurried forward, "are you okay? What''s wrong..." "It''s just that the leg hurts a little. It should be all right..." the woman rubbed her leg and said. "I''ll take you to the hospital." Jane Mo said and wanted to come forward to help. "I have something else to do. It should be... Shouldn''t it be a big deal?!" The woman continued to rub her legs, but her face was obviously suffering. At the right time, the big boy who ran after Jane Mo''s car had hurried over and looked at the woman''s face twisted because of pain. He suddenly looked pale. He hurried forward with Jane Mo to help, "aunt, I''d better go to the hospital?" Jane Mo looked at the big boy and saw that the woman still wanted to refuse. She calmly said, "the body is the most important. If there is a problem with the body, even the most important thing can''t be done." The woman looked at Jane Mo and finally nodded her head. Fortunately, Huakang hospital is nearby. Jian Mo took the woman there directly I''m afraid the big boy who hit the tail met such a thing for the first time. He stopped driving his car and took Jane Mo''s car. Li Yunze is not in the hospital, but many people still know Jane mo. when they heard that she hit her, they didn''t dare to neglect and hurried to start the examination. As soon as the curtain of inspection was pulled up, Jane Mo''s mobile phone rang She took it out and saw that it was Gu Beichen. She picked it up and put it in her ear... Before she could speak, his soft and low voice came. "Did you go back?" "Not yet. I''m in the hospital." Jane Mo said subconsciously. Gu Beichen was stunned first. "Hospital? What''s the matter?" He didn''t even think about it. He took his coat and walked out. His voice was filled with nervous worry, "which hospital is it?" Chapter 813 Jian Mo was confused by Gu Beichen''s serial problems "Mo''er?!" Gu Beichen''s voice became more and more anxious, and his stride became bigger. Jane Mo suddenly reacted, "it''s not me..." As soon as Gu Beichen heard this, his heart suddenly relaxed and fell down. "Just came back, accidentally... Someone chased me at the back of the car, and I hit someone." Jian Mo said finally, her voice was obviously filled with the solemnity of worry. "Where? I''ll come." Gu Beichen pressed the elevator. "In Huakang." Jane Mo said, "you''re busy. When you check it out, look at the situation..." "Wait there and I''ll go." Gu Beichen has pressed the down button to the parking lot. There is an irrefutable breath in his voice. Jane Mo looked at the curtain pulled by her eyes. After all, she still answered. After hanging up, Jane Mo looked back The big boy behind her car sat there awkwardly, looking at the curtain of the bed from time to time, his face full of worry. The boy should look like a college student with vitality on his face, which is something that hasn''t been out of the campus. Jane Mo sat aside, "it shouldn''t be a big deal. The inertia of your car hit her..." "Sorry..." the big boy rubbed his hands. "I''m a novice, because you suddenly stopped, I didn''t respond." Jane Mo''s eyes are full of apologies. She was distracted when she looked at her children just now. If she didn''t react quickly, I''m afraid this woman could be hit more seriously by her. Seeing that Jian Mo didn''t speak, the big boy hurriedly said, "well, I don''t blame you for stopping suddenly. I mean... I''m talking about technical problems." Jane Mo gently pulled down the corners of her mouth and shook her head, "I''m driving... Don''t worry too much, huh?" The big boy frowned and nodded, but he was still very upset when he bumped into someone. Gu Beichen came quickly. When he came, the middle-aged woman just finished the examination. "President Gu..." the doctor said after greeting Gu Beichen, "I just had a preliminary examination, and the film came out right away... It should be all right." Jane and the big boy were relieved when they heard this. "Will there be any sequelae?" Gu Beichen asked. The doctor smiled and shook his head. "It shouldn''t be. The impact is not big... However, I''m afraid I have to rest more recently. I can''t walk for a long time, or it will always have a little impact." Gu Beichen nodded. The doctor said hello and left. The nurse had helped the middle-aged woman out. When Gu Beichen saw the woman, the eagle''s eyes suddenly went deep... But in a flash, it was calm again. The middle-aged woman looked at Gu Beichen, and her eyes crossed with doubts... Just looked at them for a few times. "The doctor said it was ok, so I won''t bother you..." the woman didn''t think about why she was familiar with Gu Beichen. She just talked to Jian Mo and wanted to leave. "Where are you going? I''ll take you there..." Jane Mo looked at the woman''s inconvenient legs and thought to herself that she had delayed her. If she could help, just help. "No, no..." the woman quickly refused, with some twinkles in her eyes. "Aunt, let''s send you?" The big boy looked guilty, "otherwise, I''m uneasy." In today''s society, there are many people who touch porcelain. Like this aunt... There are too few people who are not blackmailed when touched. "Really not..." "Send you!" Gu Beichen spoke faintly, and his voice could not be refused. The woman also wanted to refuse, but when she saw Gu Beichen''s deep ink pupils, she subconsciously nodded. "Your car is still on the road, this lady, I''ll take it with my wife, and you can deal with your business..." Gu Beichen paused. "Be careful next time." The big boy wanted to say something, but his mouth moved back and forth, and finally answered stiffly. This man, he knows, is the president of the Emperor... Unexpectedly, he just rear ended the president''s wife''s car! The big boy doesn''t dare to talk much. If people don''t investigate him, he should laugh secretly. What else dare he say? Jian Mo''s car Gu Beichen asked Xiao Jing to send someone to repair it. He drove the woman to the place she wanted to go The destination is a relatively backward place in Los Angeles. The government has always wanted to transform the shantytowns, but the project has not been implemented because it involves a lot. As the time on the road lengthened, the woman occasionally looked at Gu Beichen driving. Gradually, she was a little nervous "Just send me here." The woman said when she reached an intersection. Gu Beichen stopped the car, and his car really couldn''t drive in "You sit in the car and I''ll take her back." Gu Beichen looked back at Jian Mo, and his deep eagle eyes gazed slightly. Jane Mo wanted to send the woman, but her chest hurt a little and she was afraid. When Gu Beichen saw it, she simply nodded her head. She looked at the woman with an apologetic look on her face. "I''m really sorry for what happened today... I''m sorry to waste your time." The woman pulled the corners of her mouth and shook her head. She subconsciously looked at Gu Beichen who wanted to get off. Jane Mo didn''t pay attention to the woman''s sight. She just explained a few more words and left her mobile phone number. She said she could contact her if she was uncomfortable On the way, the woman endured it several times, but finally said with a dignified face: "Mr. Gu, you don''t have to send me..." Gu Beichen stopped slowly. The eagle''s eyes fell on the woman. One side of the thin lip overflowed with a faint smile, "why, remember?" In the light voice, there was a slight mockery. The woman bit her teeth and frowned She never thought that she would be hit by Jane Mo''s car if she went out to buy something. I don''t know if it''s a causal cycle. "I really don''t know what happened back then..." the woman''s voice was a little anxious. Gu beichenjun''s face was completely indifferent without any expression. He just looked at the woman with a deep look and said, "where is the account of Yuanda that year?" "I don''t know!" The woman''s answer didn''t even think for a second. It was almost instinctive resistance. Gu Beichen''s thin lips lifted slightly, spilled a touch of sneer, and slightly lowered his eyes, collecting the coldness in the bottom of his eyes. He looked down into the alley. "How long have you lived here?" He asked gently, "who else is there in the family?" Then he looked at the woman, whose face had turned pale. "Gu Zong, what do you want to do?" The woman''s breathing is a little cramped, "now, now it''s a society ruled by law..." "What do you think I''m going to do?" Gu Beichen''s words were light at the end, with a cold and thin smile. Don''t say the purpose, let yourself guess... This is what makes people feel the most terrible. Gu Beichen said slowly, "I don''t like to embarrass others, but some people like to embarrass me..." in his voice, there was an undisguised danger, "I''m often impolite." Chapter 814 The woman was a little flustered by Gu Beichen''s words. "President Gu, what happened in those years really had nothing to do with me..." she seemed to be a little angry, "Why are you holding on to me like this?" Gu Beichen looked at the woman with eagle eyes. "It doesn''t matter... What are you afraid of?" "I..." the woman was suddenly asked. Timely, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone vibrated. He indifferently took back his eyes on the woman, took out his mobile phone and crossed the text message After reading it, I only heard him say: "the child''s illness is very serious?!" Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at the woman''s blood losing face. "When did you figure it out, you can come to me." Then he withdrew his sight indifferently, turned and wanted to leave. "President Gu?" The woman was worried, "what have you done to my daughter?" Gu Beichen stopped, but didn''t look back. "I asked someone to take her to the hospital... In your current situation, it''s estimated that it''s very difficult to keep her alive." The woman began to tremble uncontrollably "If you want her to live, come to me with the account book of that year." Gu Beichen glanced back. "Don''t try to find Mo''er, otherwise, I will do something. Sometimes I really can''t control it." Gu Beichen''s indifferent words fell down and went to the original road without stopping more The woman leaned against the wall with a weak body. Looking at the man''s lonely back, her heart began to tremble. This man is much more vicious than she saw eight years ago Years have accumulated too much calm ice on him, more bloody. ¡­¡­ "Do you know that woman?" Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen get on the bus and asked with an eyebrow. Gu Beichen looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror. "Why do you ask?" He started the car with a smile on his lips. "Feeling..." Jane Mo frowned slightly. "I don''t know." Jian Mo looks at Gu Beichen and wants to see something from his side face... Unfortunately, there is no superfluous expression except to see his tenderness to her. "Do you think I know this woman?" Gu Beichen looked in the rearview mirror again. "Why don''t you think about how to explain to me?" "Explain what?" Jane Mo asked subconsciously. Gu Beichen''s cold face was filled with a little angry, "explain why he stopped in an emergency. When he was chased by someone, he hit someone!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and said, "who can guarantee no accident?" By implication, it was just an accident "Are you going back to the company later?" Jane Mo changed the subject. Gu Beichen sighed quietly. Knowing that Jian Mo wanted to change the topic, he didn''t continue to ask, "I''ll take you back first..." "OK..." Jane Mo answered softly. Back to the villa in the middle of the mountain, J has come back early "Would you like to finish before you go?" Jane Mo looked at the time and asked. "Susan has asked the restaurant to prepare..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and couldn''t help it. After kissing her for a while, he sighed, "why don''t you work overtime with me?" Jian Mo was kissed by Gu Beichen with some unstable breath, and said angrily, "I''m there, you''re not in the mood to work." Gu Beichen listened and smiled helplessly, "it''s also......" he paused, "go in." Jane nodded and walked to the villa. Gu Beichen also turned and got into the car. While the car drove out of the villa, he dialed Li Yunze''s phone. "The girl Xiao Jing sent over won''t be seen by anyone." "What girl?" Li Yunze''s voice was a little hoarse, "why, Tibetan with Jianmo on his back?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and ignored Li Yunze''s ridicule. He just asked, "aren''t you in good condition?" Li Yunze closed his eyes. In front of his brother, his voice was obviously tired and said, "he Yining sent the woman away one by one..." "..." Gu Beichen frowned, "send away? What do you mean?" "Literally..." Li Yunze leaned back on the seat tired. "This woman is crazy!" There was anger in the gnashing of teeth. Gu Beichen gradually frowned, "what did you do?" "...." Li Yunze stopped talking when asked. "Yunze, if you love this woman, you''ll put down that shit..." Gu Beichen sighed softly. "If you don''t love her, don''t entangle with her. Why is it a woman who has loved you for so many years and has to die?" Li Yunze rubbed his temples. His voice was tired and asked, "who did Xiao Jing send over?" Seeing that he didn''t want to talk more, Gu Beichen didn''t continue. As for love, we know everything from cold to warm... No one can do or decide anything for the party concerned. "Uremic patients." Gu Beichen said indifferently, "her mother has the accounts of Yuanda that year in her hand." Li Yunze''s eyes were slightly cold. "Last time I heard Zixiao say that I could find the accounts of that year. I can know the doubts that I can''t solve all the time?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, "maybe, who knows?!" "I know..." Li Yunze answered. "The hospital over there hasn''t been officially opened yet. If you want to find it, you have to have some skills." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and said, "tomorrow is estimated to come back to the south. The New Year celebration is over. Let''s sit together." "OK..." "Hang up!" Gu Beichen hung up while his words fell. ¡­¡­ After eating, Jane and j played games with him for a while, then washed and went to bed. I was bored and took a design book, but I didn''t turn a page for half a day. Jane Mo took her mobile phone to log in to QQ and wechat, and there was no message from Li Xiaoyue They had been separated for so long, but she didn''t have a word left except for the occasional postcard that proved that she still "existed". Jian Mo lay on the bed, thought for a while, and left a message on wechat: Xiao Yue, I''m a little scared! Naturally, no one replied. Jane Mo Xu is too depressed. She urgently needs to find a breakthrough to vent When a sentence was typed out, several messages were sent out uncontrollably. "I don''t know why. I always feel that sometimes my brain will suddenly empty?" "But I''ll think about it later. I can''t remember it at all... It''s like a fragment for no reason!" "Xiao Yue, I saw many children today. I always thought... When Xiao Yan went to kindergarten, he waited for me to pick him up every day!" "I bumped into someone today. I felt a little familiar with that person, and then I felt a little nervous!" "Xiao Yue, my thoughts will be empty, and occasionally I will be filled with fantasy. Is it really sick?" Jane Mo closed her eyes and climbed up her face with anxiety As long as Gu Beichen is not around, especially when she is alone at night, she will be confused and even irritable. Open your eyes, Jane Mo took the water cup on one side and drank the water in a big breath. Her eyes fell on the wechat interface again My heart is depressed, but one by one, I will cancel all the messages sent! Chapter 815 Jane Mo hung her hand powerlessly, and the mobile phone screen was still on On the wechat interface, there is a record prompt that several messages have been withdrawn. Jane Mo closed her eyes and breathed deeply for several times, trying to calm her flustered mood... When she opened it again, she calmed down a little. Press off the mobile phone screen, she put the book and mobile phone aside, dimmed the bedside lamp and planned to sleep. But after tossing and turning for an hour, she not only didn''t feel sleepy at all, but even became more and more awake. There is something in her mind. When Jane Mo wants to sort out what she thinks, she can''t remember anything. With a deep sigh, Jane Mo opened her eyes, got up, put on her cotton shirt and got out of bed. There was a slight sound in the huge villa. Jane Mo looked downstairs. J was holding the computer on the sofa and didn''t know what to do She didn''t make a sound, just looked left and right, and finally went to Gu Beichen''s study. In the study, a faint smell of tobacco filled the air, mixed with the smell of Gu Beichen alone. Jane stood in a little disorderly mood. Sitting in the office chair, Jane Mo didn''t do anything, just shrunk her legs to the chair and curled up on it That feeling is like looking for comfort. The sight subconsciously turned around slowly. Suddenly, Jane Mo looked at a dark brown box in the bookcase and frowned slightly. Thoughts control consciousness. When Jane Mo reacts, she has opened the bookcase and took out the box. Very light! Jane Mo frowned, put it on the desk and opened it There are all sheets of paper inside, and the top one has a QR code. Jane Mo took out all the papers inside, all of which were QR codes... There were single-layer and double-layer. Jane Mo flipped like this. Suddenly, she saw a design drawing mixed in the middle of the QR code. She drew it out from the middle. This is a design drawing that has not been painted in a real sense... But Jian Mo still saw at a glance that it is a wooden house with humanized and unique design. Jian Mo looked at it for a while before she was sure it was Gu Beichen''s own painting His cable and design style are full of personal flavor, but they are as rigorous as teaching materials. Jian Mo flipped the paper, and there was also a QR code on the back of the design. Almost without consideration, Jane Mo put down all the paper in her hand and hurried to the bedroom Maybe her action was too big and startled the j below. "Jane Mo?!" J shouted, and Jane Mo had entered the bedroom. However, in a few seconds, she ran out again... To the study. J frowned, threw the computer aside and hurried upstairs... When he got to the door of the study, he saw Jian Mo holding his mobile phone and facing the paper. He didn''t know what to do. With a sound of "drop", Jian Mo looked at the QR code information displayed behind the design drawing. She felt uneasy all night, as if she had settled down in an instant. ¡ª¡ªTo my love! J came in curiously, and when he saw that it was a QR code, he turned his mouth. In that way, it was obvious that some people thought it was childish and some disliked it. Probe J went to get the pile of QR codes, "a lot..." Jian Mo looked up at J, first carefully put the page of the design drawing into the box, then took the QR code in J''s hand and selected the single-layer one first. The mobile phones were swept one by one. At this moment, Jian Mo''s heart was filled with Gu Beichen''s full love words "This night, I miss her very much!" "I always think it''s not good enough for her, but she never wants more greedily." "I owe her a lot of promises. I don''t know if I can do it all my life?" "Actually, I don''t want to do it!" "So you can make an appointment for her next life..." "Separate the two places, but I know that our hearts are together... Very warm!" "I just hope I can be better to her." "If there''s any regret, it''s that I didn''t cherish her more." ¡°¡­¡­¡± "Mo''er!" It seems to be a mood essay. Occasionally, there is only the name "Mo''er" The smile on the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth became deeper and deeper, and her confused thoughts were filled with these words... She always seemed to see that Gu Beichen was painting a QR code at that time. Originally, it was just a game In the end, it has become the "password" for transmitting love between them. Such a feeling is unpalatable. "Unexpectedly, Gu Beichen is quite numb..." J glanced and hummed, and said in his heart: women love this set. No wonder other men can''t compare with Gu Beichen. It''s not a paragraph at all?! "You sweep slowly..." J is not interested in such love. "I continue to crack the program." Jane Mo glanced at J and ignored her. She just found the paper and was ready to solve the double-layer QR code. The light shrouded Jane mo. on her hand pressing the paper, the diamond emitted a faint and soft light. When Jane Mo untied the first double-layer QR code, her mobile phone rang in time Jane Mo took it and saw that it was Gu Beichen. She smiled and picked it up: "ah Chen?" "Haven''t you slept yet?" It was a question, but a positive tone, with a little anger. "J told you?" Jane Mo was dissatisfied. "When did you buy him off?" Gu Beichen listened and frowned, "it''s very late." "Are you finished?" Jane Mo asked with a smile. "Don''t change the subject!" Jane Mo listened to the serious voice, and the smile at the corners of her mouth became stronger. "How long are you going to be busy?" Gu Beichen listened to her soft voice and lost his temper. "It''s going to be a while..." he paused. He said softly, "go to bed first, huh?" Jane Mo looked at several undivided QR codes and didn''t want to agree. "If I don''t sleep, I''ll go back now..." Gu Beichen said indifferently, but several bosses who waited for him to give instructions and worked overtime together had convulsed uncontrollably. They have no doubt that if the president''s wife resists, the president will throw away what he has in hand and really go back "Don''t..." Jane Mo didn''t want to attend to Beichen because she put down her business. "I''ll go to bed now." "Yes!" "Good night, husband!" "Good night..." Listening to the soft and enchanting voice, Jane Mo hung up the phone. She reluctantly put the QR codes drawn by Gu Beichen into the box, put the box into the bookcase, and took the QR code just disassembled back to the bedroom Originally, Jane Mo wanted to train J, but there was no figure of him under the building. "Run fast..." Jane Mo murmured and entered the bedroom. After getting into bed, she scanned the QR code that was decomposed. It''s just that when she saw the displayed words, Jane Mo had only one feeling at that moment Is it a coincidence... Or fate?! Chapter 816 "The happiest thing marriage brings to me is to say ''good night'' to her before going to bed every day... When she wakes up every morning, she can say ''good morning'' to me!" Close your eyes and finally see each other Open your eyes, still in each other''s arms... What you see is still each other. The simplest happiness is also the most extravagant. Just now, he said "good night" to her! Jane Mo put the QR code map under the pillow, dimmed the bedside lamp, lay down and closed her eyes Without the previous anxiety and insomnia, this time, Jane Mo soon fell asleep. Xu is because of Gu Beichen''s "good night". Xu is. The QR code is under the pillow. She feels his breath and feels at ease. Night, long but short, flows with the passage of time. The next day, early in the morning, the news of the emperor''s anniversary filled the whole city of Los Angeles, everyone''s eyes and ears. Jane Mo woke up earlier than usual, surrounded by a familiar breath. Gu Beichen didn''t sleep so deeply. After Jian Mo woke up for a few seconds, he frowned slightly and had a tendency to wake up. She fanned her eyes, looked at Gu Beichen''s cold side face, and said with a smile: "good morning, husband..." "Morning..." Gu Beichen''s voice just came out. Jian Mo had got up slightly and his lips fell on the corner of his mouth. Jane Mo just wanted to leave Gu Beichen. Who knows, she was suppressed by him in turn "Well..." Before he could resist, Gu Beichen began to attack the city and plunder the pool. For the sake of Jian Mo''s health, Gu Beichen can only endure recently But the kind of suffering that has endured for a long time and his wife can only hug, touch and hug again, only his own heart knows. I can''t bear it if I don''t have to be around. I can''t see or eat when I''m around From time to time, Jian Mo has to tease him badly. If he doesn''t find some small benefits for himself, it''s definitely not Gu Beichen! Jian Mo''s breath was out of breath, and Gu Beichen let go of Jian mo. However, it is also more sad to find He said he wanted to get some small benefits. In the end, he was the one who suffered. In winter, even if there is heating in the house, take a cold bath in the early morning... It''s so sour that Jane Mo feels cold. "Deserved it!" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen painfully and scolded angrily. Gu Beichen was helpless. He hugged Jian Mo and buried his head in her neck. He had to find a way to solve it by himself "When you get better, I''ll see how I deal with you..." Gu Beichen said in a low voice at the last moment. Jane Mo''s face has turned red. This man is like this It was solved by her Gu Beichen went to the bathroom with Jane Mo in his arms and took a bath for her in person. He also took a messy bath, so he put on his clothes and went downstairs together. "I won''t go to the company today," Gu Beichen drank a cup of coffee. "After lunch, let''s pick up Xiaojie and Su sanshao first." "Well, good." Jane answered. "I''ll go too..." J said hastily. He is no stranger to Jian Jie. After all, from knowing that he existed to Jian Mo''s time in Mo palace, he often intruded into the school to monitor and watch him. Gu Beichen glanced at J lightly and didn''t say anything, but he was obviously unwilling to take him. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao thumbed through the information in Ye Chenyu''s private detective agency. It has been more than a month since she got a clue, but there is still no big progress. "Then, do you really think that account book is useful?" Asked Xiao Zi, rubbing her eyebrows. Ye Chenyu shrugged and looked like a fool. "That woman is very precious. It''s useless to say. Do you believe it?" Chu Zixiao put down the information and wrote dignified words on her face. "In fact, I don''t think you want to find anything lately." Ye Chenyu looked directly at Chu Zixiao and looked closely at him. Chu Zixiao looked at him and said, "why do you ask?" "You''re afraid to find out. Cen Lanxi did it." Chu Zixiao frowned. Ye Chenyu took the cup to make coffee. "What are you worried about?" He said casually, "anyway, Jian Mo doesn''t know you''re checking... If Cen Lanxi did it, it''s a big deal. It ended last summer. Don''t mention it." Chu Zixiao didn''t answer After ye Chenyu pressed the button of the coffee machine, he leaned on the table. "Or... You''re afraid of this result, you can''t help but say it to Jane Mo?" "What are you talking about?" Chu Zixiao''s eyebrows wrinkled tightly. Ye Chenyu still looked evil. "You know what I say..." he shrugged. "Zixiao, you are afraid to destroy her marriage with your little uncle, aren''t you?" "Ye Chenyu!" Chu Zixiao''s voice was deep and full of warning. Ye Chenyu didn''t care at all. He handed Chu Zixiao a cup of coffee. "This thing can only solve the problem when faced... You can''t think about it, but you don''t believe yourself." "Maybe before..." Chu Zixiao still wrung his eyebrows and drank a cup of coffee. The coffee without sugar and milk was so bitter that people''s tongue tied, "but not now." "Oh?" Ye Chenyu had some accidents. Chu Zixiao sighed, "I don''t know when I can put down my love for her, but now I really hope that Momo and Beichen can be happy." "Great love!" Ye Chenyu said and raised his thumb. He couldn''t help praising Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao gave him a cold look, and was obviously annoyed by his ridicule. Ye Chenyu didn''t continue this topic, just looked at the time, "it''s getting late. Don''t you want to celebrate last year?" "Yes." Chu Zixiao looked at the time, put down his coffee and said, "I''ll go first. I''ll come back when I get the account book..." "OK." Chu Zixiao took the windbreaker and walked out while wearing it As night fell, the media were already crowded outside the Los Angeles hotel. One after another, someone has begun to come The emperor''s own influence, coupled with a lot of big people coming today, the media also made great efforts to dig some news. Unfortunately, in addition to entertainment, only the media people under the emperor can enter the venue. Of course, Luo Xiaomi, as a "spy" of her newspaper, takes some news from time to time, and others have no temper In the banquet hall on the whole floor used for large-scale activities in the Los Angeles Hotel, with the advance of time, it has been full of wine and sideburns. The waiter shuttled through the crowd with a tray full of all kinds of wine in his hand. In twos and threes, he talked with a smile, but he was a little sincere. I''m afraid only he knew it in his heart. "Haven''t Beichen and Xiao Jane arrived yet?" Gu Ci and Chu tianqin came over. Gu Nanyi shook his head, "it should be fast..." Just then, there was a sudden agitation at the door. Then, the huge banquet hall looked at the door like a wave Jian Mo took Gu Beichen''s arm, while Gu Beichen took Jian Jie in his other hand Chapter 817 Gu Beichen is dressed in a dark suit cut by the genre, a white shirt and a black bow tie... The most common dress shows an unparalleled lingran atmosphere. Jane Mo recovers well after childbirth. At the moment, she is wearing a meat pink dress wrapped around her chest, and she can''t see any excess fat... A crystal button pin clasps the light pink blue shawl, which is simple and charming under her youth. Jane Jie is just like a little gentleman The most important thing is that others look like a reduced version of Gu Beichen, and they are wearing the same small suit as Gu Beichen, only with a red bow tie. Gu Beichen walked in hand in hand, which made people have an unspeakable beauty. Last time, Gu Beichen exposed the existence of Jian Jie, but in order to protect Jian Mo, Gu Beichen has begun to cancel her news on the Internet and even in the media... Let alone a family of three. At the moment, a family of three appeared at the same time, which shocked the people on the scene. In their beauty "Oh, my God, the whole family is beautiful, beautiful, handsome, cute..." Xiang night shook his head and sighed, "it''s just pulling hatred for every minute, making people want to vomit blood!" Mu Xiaoran nodded in agreement Xiangyu''s people laughed one by one, but looking at the three people who came in, they said they didn''t envy at all. It was all false. "Such a same frame can only be seen and can''t be reported..." Chen Yu welcomed him with a cup of red wine in his hand. "Gu Beichen, my royal media, is crazy at the moment." Jian Mo looked at Chen Yu and subconsciously looked around. She didn''t see Li Jinxi and didn''t say much. "I''ll say hello to Xiangyu''s people..." Jian Mo and Gu Beichen said, looked at J who followed in behind, and left with him and Jian Jie. "Not afraid of tiring her?" Chen asked. "I''m afraid it''s late here. She''s bored at home alone..." Gu Beichen took the red wine handed over by the waiter. While greeting people, he walked in the direction of Li Yunze, "I said hello, and the people over there in Xiangyu will take care of it." Besides, j is around... If others are really bothered by Mo''er, he hates it more than anyone. The so-called "hello", Chen Yu thought it was just to let people block Jane mo. But obviously, he was wrong. Gu Beichen has spoken before. During the annual meeting, I hope everyone will try not to disturb his wife He spoke in person. Even if many people wanted to climb from Jian Mo to Gu Beichen, they didn''t dare. The meaning of Gu Beichen''s words is obvious. If anyone bothers his wife... I''m sorry, there''s no need to talk about any cooperation! Naturally, one by one, even after seeing Jane Mo, they put a cat in their heart and scratched hard... They can only endure it. Jian Mo said hello to the Su family and Gu Beichen before going to Xiangyu "Sister Mo," she asked curiously after taking juice to Jane Mo in the evening, "do you know what the highest award at the annual meeting tonight is?" Jane Mo shook her head. "I didn''t ask..." she said with a smile. "The special prize is a house of 100 square meters. The highest prize added must be high but not low." "Tut Tut, I don''t know who has such good luck..." Xiang said with gold coins in his eyes, "Hey, actually... I just want the special prize." The current house price in Los Angeles is not affordable for ordinary people at all. We should focus on the monthly payment all our life... It''s sad to think about it. Besides, the emperor''s house One hundred square meters, the worst lot is millions, not to mention the better lot! Tut Tut, this mysterious highest award is so greedy and exciting The emperor''s generous gesture this time not only excited the employees and people attending the annual meeting, but also made nature, the media and the people curious. "Even I''m curious..." Li Yunze and Gu Beichen touched the cup, "what''s the highest prize you have?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a crooked radian, and a pair of eagle eyes gradually became deep He raised his hand and sipped the wine. After the taste buds spread, the mellow fragrance at the entrance scratched into the throat... At the right time, the line of sight was so deep that people couldn''t see the bottom. "The market price of the announced grand prize has exceeded at least one million," Chen Yu shook his wine glass. "Emperor, this is either low-key or high-key." Chu Zixiao didn''t speak all the time, but when it came to this problem, he was obviously curious Gu Beichen smiled and still didn''t say anything. At the right time, the mobile phone vibrated. Gu Beichen picked it up and cut open the text message. "Boss long is not coming to the annual meeting. He said it''s heaven night..." he looked at Li Yunze, "let''s end the past here." On such occasions, the Dragon owl has never liked to participate, and they are used to it. "Brother, brother..." With a resolute voice, Gu Beichen and others looked and saw that Lin, who was full of military breath all over, came to the South "Tut Tut, is this just back from Africa?" Make complaints about the first time. Lin glanced at him southward. "Labor and capital have just finished the confrontation between Nansha Island and Weichen, and they have taken off several layers of skin in the sun." After complaining, he came forward and hugged Gu Beichen and slapped Li Yunze The friendship between brothers, even if it has not been seen for a long time, has not retreated at all. Several people chatted about the recent situation, and listened to Lin Nan ask, "where''s Xiao Jie? I''ve prepared a gift for him!" "Oh?" Gu Beichen asked with deep eyes. Although Lin Nanan now has many soldiers in his hand, he is a younger brother in front of Gu Beichen. He raised his eyebrows and said, "I made him an Optimus Prime with a cartridge case..." he said, looking like he was asking for praise, "third brother, what''s up? Have you thought about it?" "Hmm..." Gu Beichen smiled. "Are you afraid I''m going to investigate you for doing a batch of materials in the name of the emperor without going through formal channels?" At the same time, Gu Beichen had raised his eyes, and the eagle''s eyes looked at Lin Nan deeply. Lin Nan swallowed it secretly and grinned with self contempt Shit, if his soldiers see his advice now, who else can he practice in the future?! "Third brother, one yard is one yard..." Lin glanced to the south. "That matter, I came back this time to explain to you... But the gift," he was a little dissatisfied, "why, I''m also a uncle!" Li Yunze smiled. "Don''t worry, Xiaojie won''t help you." "..." was exposed, Lin Nan looked at Li Yunze with some sadness, "second brother, can you chat happily?" Li Yunze just deepened his smile and waited to see a good play. A few people chatted and occasionally dealt with the people who came to say hello Just five minutes to announce the official start of the annual meeting, Xiao Jing came over "Chen Shao, time is almost up." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, "you talk first..." the words fell, and he had already got up. Gu Beichen first asked whether Jian Mo was tired. Seeing that she had a good chat with Xiangyu''s people, he went to the main stage with confidence. The light faded slightly, and only the light of the main stage remained. "First of all, thank you for taking time out of your busy schedule to attend the emperor''s New Year celebration before the new year..." Gu Beichen''s low and magnetic voice came through the microphone. "Tonight''s annual meeting is divided into five sections..." Gu Beichen was so indifferent. After the eagle''s eyes crossed one, youyou said: "the highest award that has been kept secret will also be drawn out before the end of the annual meeting..." There was some agitation at the bottom, and some people even asked excitedly, what is the grand prize? "Are you curious about the highest award?" Oh, look at the evil in the north. "Yes..." an employee shouted excitedly. Gu Beichen took a deep look, and put a shallow smile on the edge of his thin lips. Just when everyone held their breath, his indifferent voice overflowed his thin lips: "the last mysterious award is sponsored by me." After a pause, his vision became deep and bottomless, "I will take out 1% of the emperor''s shares as the final prize!" His words immediately shocked the whole audience. No one thought that the highest prize was the emperor''s share Even at this moment, everyone thought Gu Beichen was crazy! Chapter 818 At first, the scene was shocked, followed by an uproar, and even... Regardless of their manners, they began to whisper one after another. "Just now..." Gu Ci''s whole face has twisted up, "... What does Beichen say is the grand prize?" Gu Yuan didn''t answer. She just looked at the stage and still looked at Gu Beichen with a indifferent face. "It''s said to take out 1% of the emperor''s shares as a prize..." Gu Nanyi said in a dignified voice. The emperor''s current share, 1%, is an astronomical figure Let''s not say what the equivalent amount of money is. At present, taking out the emperor''s shares in this form is simply crazy and staggering. "Beichen is just fooling around!" Gu CI immediately sank his face and wanted to stop Gu Beichen. Chu tianqin grabbed Gu Ci, "calm down first..." he also tightened his eyebrows. "Don''t say that Beichen decided that you can''t change things. Besides... He has his own ideas about everything. Even if you go now, can you stop it?" "But we can''t let him fool around like this..." Gu Ci was trembling with anger. Gu Yuan snorted coldly, "Beichen is really interesting... Thinking about 5% in my hand, but taking 1% as the highest prize in the annual meeting?!" Gu Nanyi didn''t speak, but also looked at Gu Beichen with a frown Because the light below is relatively dark, you can only see the expression of people in a small range within your sight. One by one, the surprised Chins were about to fall off. Even Li Yunze and others were dignified. "Shit," Lin Nannan was the first to say, "is the third brother having a fever?" Li Yunze glanced at him lightly and said in a heavy voice: "it''s amazing..." "More than that?" Chu Zixiao sneered, "it''s like dropping a bomb." Chen Yu leaned aside, holding a red wine glass in his hand, turning intentionally or unintentionally, "more than a bomb?" His voice was faint. "If it falls on the individual shareholders, it''s almost dizzy." The three people on one side all looked at Chen Yu, and their faces were more dignified... In fact, they were more worried about this. Think deeply here, and Xiangyu is obviously "superficial". After being shocked, they imagined that such a good thing would fall on themselves... Of course, they were just joking, not really fantasizing. "Mo Mo," Luo Xiaojing and Yu Ziyun were obviously a little more worried than those young people. "You don''t know anything about President Gu''s decision?" Jian Mo frowned and looked at Gu Beichen who was still on the stage. After giving everyone shock time, Gu Beichen began to continue talking and shook his head. "I''m afraid president Gu''s decision has its own deep meaning?" Asked Tang Haoyang. Yu Ziyun said with a smile: "but 1% of the emperor''s shares are enough to make people want to commit a crime." Jian Mo took a look at Yu Ziyun, and the solemnity of the fundus deepened a bit. "Don''t worry too much..." Luo Xiaojing comforted. "President Gu must have his purpose and reason to do so." Jane sighed, "I''m just strange..." Her words just fell. Gu Beichen had finished his words and stepped down from the main stage in the applause of everyone. When the host came to the stage and began to arrange the activities, he first warmed up and drew out the lucky prize Gu Beichen came to Li Yunze and received a text message. Open Mo''er: Mr. Gu, do you own shares? Gu Beichen immediately smiled on his thin lips and looked up at Xiangyu''s group of people. His eyes were filled with gentle drooping eyes and replied to the past: no! Jane Mo saw that his answer was so natural, and suddenly she was unable to laugh or cry: no?! So where did you get 1% for private sponsorship? Gu Beichen completely ignored his brothers around him and sent a text message to Jane Mo: go back... Shall I write you a debit note? Jane Mo frowned: I''m afraid it''s still hard for Gu Zong''s salary? Gu Beichen''s smile has been filled in the bottom of his eyes: it''s all right. I''ll earn you some shares later, with principal and interest! Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen''s relaxed words and didn''t bother about it. She just made a ''kiss'' expression in the past "Tut Tut, third brother, you''re laughing too much..." Lin Nan couldn''t stand it. When I looked at his cell phone, I saw several people in Beichen. "What''s the matter?" "Beichen, are you too risky?" Li Yunze seemed to feel something and asked with some worry. "If you want to catch a big fish," Gu Beichen said indifferently, "you have to enlarge the bait." "Others won''t see it?" Chu Zixiao frowned and obviously didn''t agree very much. Gu Beichen gently hooked the corner of his mouth and leaned back on the back of the sofa. "It depends on whether the other party has enough concentration." This mysterious shareholder''s shares plus this 1% are only a fraction of his shares, but he will become the second shareholder... The right to speak is different. ¡­¡­ Xiao Jing went to the backstage main control room at the beginning of the activity. Emperor''s professional IT staff are still busy All the Raffles tonight are carried out according to the lottery procedures they wrote, and everyone who entered the scene wrote them. This 1% of the emperor''s shares is a bait. Naturally, Gu Beichen will not be unprepared at all. If the other party doesn''t do it, who will spend it in the end... I''ve been prepared for it for a long time. Of course, in order to avoid suspicion, it will certainly not fall on the hands of the family who have a close relationship with the family "Is there any movement?" Xiao Jing went to Xie Haitian and asked in a low voice. Xie Haitian shook his head. "There''s no movement at all..." when he said, he suddenly wondered, "even if the other party wants to move the program, but the time is so tight, I''m afraid it''s not easy?" Although this award is the last, it can only take about three hours at most Xiao Jing looked at the computer screen with his hands in his pockets... The other party could hold the emperor''s shares. They couldn''t find their identity. They must not be small people. How can there be few capable people around such a person? "Wait..." Xiao Jing said, "if you have any questions, please feel free to contact me." Xie Haitian smiled, "the anti tracking program written by J, I think ordinary people..." he shook his head, and there was obvious admiration in his eyes, "Hey, I really want to fight him sometime!" Xiao Jing glanced at Xie Haitian and really couldn''t bear to tell him... Many times before, he was crushed and had no backhand ability. The other party was J. Of course, Xiao Jing just thought about it and didn''t say it. After all, these people still don''t know about Shi Shaoqin ¡­¡­ Lu Yinping sat in a high-end but decadent bar drinking wine and looked at the enchanting dancers dancing pole dancing on the dance floor He is a little star in the fourth and fifth tier. He has a hot figure. When he raises his hand and throws his foot, he is completely provocative. Some people here often come to work part-time. On the one hand, they have a desire for money. Naturally, there are also those who want to climb high... After all, people who come here are not soft on money. "Go and ask, how much is she for a night?" Lu Yinping said to the people around him. "Yes!" When the talent around him left, Lu Yinping''s mobile phone on the small table lit up. He picked it up and crossed the text message The emperor''s highest award is 1% of the shares! Chapter 819 When Lu Yinping saw the text message, his whole face coagulated, and then... His eyes looked at the 1% shares, filled with complex emotions. "Brother Ping, he said he just came to visit the field and didn''t accompany the night!" Lu Yinping pressed out his mobile phone and looked at the stage The woman''s slender and straight legs are hooked on the steel pipe, and the person falls upside down... It''s very provocative. The whole audience has turned upside down and began to bid one by one. The dancers here can ask for a price after a dance, and then get a share... More than a dance can earn tens of thousands. "There is no woman I want to sleep without..." Lu Yinping sneered. "I don''t care what you think, I''ll see her in bed tonight." Then he took the lead, "I have something to do." "Yes!" The man answered and looked at Lu Yinping as he left. Then he looked sympathetically at the little star who had stepped down the steel pipe. Lu Yinping got on the bus and called the person who sent the text message, "what form is the lottery over the emperor?" "Computer lottery!" The other party looked and finally drew out the lucky prize. "Gu Beichen is really bold..." Lu Yinping sneered, "how dare you make such a random one." "I guess it''s written in the program," the other party sneered. "The final award must fall in the hands of trusted people." "What''s the point?" Lu Yinping asked with a smile. The other party was obviously stunned, "what do you mean?" "What is the significance of taking out shares and finally falling into the hands of their own people?" Lu Yinping sneered, "how free do you think Gu Beichen is to take off his pants and fart like this?" The other party was obviously asked, grinned several times and didn''t say anything. Lu Yin lay flat on the car seat and snorted coldly, "Gu Beichen, I''m afraid he''s fishing for a big fish..." As for who he caught, I''m afraid everyone knows very well. However, whether Gu Beichen can catch the fish depends on whether his pole and bait are powerful or whether the fish is smart. "Has Wang Zijiao passed today?" Lu Yinping asked. "Well, I came with a small driver..." Wang Zijiao is a star who only recently emerged as a top star after Lu man went abroad for development. She has participated in several TV dramas... She has been online on major satellite TV almost on the same schedule, and the momentum is strong. "That''s her..." Lu Yinping said, and hung up without waiting for the other party to speak. Lu Yinping started the car back to the hotel. On the way, he dialed a group of numbers. "Pick some hot photos of Wang Zijiao and send them to her..." "Brother Ping, do you want to fuck her?" There was an obscene voice over the phone. Lu Yinping sneered, "I want to go up. Do you still need this to threaten?" "That''s, that''s..." Lu Yinping hit the steering wheel and said, "start first and talk to her after the emperor''s annual meeting is over." After a pause, "in addition, the grand prize of emperor''s 1% shares tonight, you have to find a way to let it fall on Wang Zijiao." The other side pondered, "is brother Ping going to exchange photos for 1% of the emperor''s shares?" "Yes." "What if Prince Jiao doesn''t want to fight for her acting career?" No matter how beautiful and rich the star is, it''s not as attractive as the emperor''s 1% stake... It''s a wealth that can''t be eaten up in a few lives. "If she doesn''t change, she has to die!" Lu Yinping''s cold voice came. "OK, I see..." the other party smiled. "I brought the little white face she raised by the way... Did Wang Zijiao sleep with many people for that little white face?" "You can do it..." Lu Yinping said, "report the situation at any time." "Good!" Lu Yinping hung up the phone and a cold evil smile overflowed from the corners of his mouth How to say, he is also a person trained by Lord Luo. Isn''t Gu Beichen too careless about him? Even if... He doesn''t even know it''s him. ¡­¡­ In the Los Angeles Hotel, there is still joy Since Gu Beichen announced the ultimate award, no one on the scene was not excited. "You and Xiao Jie go to the suite and have a rest first, huh?" Gu Beichen asked when he saw that Jian Jie was a little sleepy. "I''ll take Xiaojie home. There''s an urgent case I want to deal with..." Chu Zixiao came over. "Don''t you have to go to heaven night later?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at Jian Mo for her advice. "I''ll go back with brother Xiao," Jian Jie rubbed his eyes. "Daddy and Mommy will pick me up tomorrow." Jane nodded. "OK... I''ll pick you up for breakfast tomorrow." ¡°OK£¡¡± Jane Jie answered. Chu Zixiao and the two nodded and left with Jian Jie first "You go ahead and leave me alone." Jane Mo said with a smile, "I''m not a child. When I''m tired, I''ll go to my room and have a rest first... Well, I''ll text you." Listening to her considerate words, Gu Beichen''s heart became soft, "I''m afraid it''s eleven or twelve o''clock when it''s over here, and I have to go to boss long..." "You can rest there, too." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. Gu Beichen thought and didn''t continue to force, "well, good." "Tut Tut, I haven''t seen you for a while. You''re more tired..." The voice of teasing came from the side of the body. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo looked and saw Shen Chu standing there with exquisite clothes and arrogance and smiling at them. "Back?!" "When I got off the plane, I came here..." Shen Chu stepped forward. "The project has been won. The government over there is very satisfied with the whole design." "Hard work!" Gu Beichen spoke faintly. Shen Chu smiled and listened to Jian Mo say, "you go and be busy. I''ll talk to Shen Chu for a while..." Gu Beichen glanced at Shen Chu, then nodded to Jian Mo and left. "Busy revising the design drawings abroad, day and night..." Shen Chu and Jian Mo went to the rest area together. "I heard about you after getting off the plane." Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth and said nothing. Shen Chu chatted with her. Finally, the topic turned to abortion "It''s been almost two months. I''ve accepted the reality." Jane Mo pulled down the corners of her mouth bitterly. Shen Chu raised his eyebrows. "Really?" Jian Mo was stunned and looked at the obvious doubt on Shen Chu''s face. She was a little angry. Shen Chu smiled proudly. "Jian Mo, in fact, we are the same to some extent." She sneered, "did you really accept it, or did you imprison yourself?" "It''s so sharp when we meet. No one tells you it''s impolite?" Jane turned her eyes. "Ah..." Shen Chu''s face was a capital ''ridicule'', "Mo Mo, everyone has a past fault, normal." She drank champagne to moisten her throat. "We are enemies and friends..." So I''m afraid she can see better than everyone. Just when she opened her mouth, it was obvious that there was something hidden under her eyes when Jane Mo spoke. "Your current situation is too similar to mine for a while..." Shen Chu put down his glass. "Jane Mo, I think you need to see a doctor!" Jane Mo frowned, "I''m not ill. Why should I see a doctor?" Chapter 820 "You need to see a psychologist!" Shen Chu''s voice can''t be ignored. Jian Mo''s eyebrows wrinkled more tightly. She confronted Shen Chu. On the surface of her eyes, she was just confused... But in the depths, there was a panic she didn''t know. "What are you doing?" Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, "do psychological construction?" Shen Chu slightly frowned, "Jian Mo, people like us... The stronger we are, the easier it is to walk into a dead end and not get out." She is the best example, but also for such a strong, paid too much price. Jane Mo is an enemy and friend to her... No matter how unhappy she was before, now she really wants to make friends with this person. At least, I hope Jane Mo is well. Then, to some extent, she also has the motivation and goal to move forward. Jian Mo was obviously silent by Shen Chu''s sharp words. After a while, she slowly opened her mouth: "after all, it''s her own child, it''s impossible to put it down..." she seemed to be a little angry, "but with ah Chen around, I''m not as bad as I thought." "Really?" Shen Chu didn''t seem to come to attend the New Year celebration, but came to find Jian moxinsai. "But why do I think it''s because of Beichen that you need to see a psychologist?" Jane Mo frowned and looked at Shen Chu, who was already angry. "Tut Tut, don''t look at me like this..." Shen Chu glanced at his eyes. "Looking back, Beichen thought what happened to me and you again." Jane Mo was a little sulky, but she didn''t continue to be angry with Shen Chu. "If you think about it, I have a friend who is an expert in this field..." Shen Chu continued without fear of death. "We can have dinner together later and talk." "Shen Chu, do you have to find me today?" Jane Mo was helpless, "a little compassionate, okay?" "Fart compassion..." Shen Chu sneered, "do you think people like me have that thing?" "..." Jane Mo leaned weakly on the sofa, "you won." Shen Chu shrugged. "By the way, as soon as he came in, he heard everyone talking about the grand prize. Beichen took the emperor''s shares out to hold the annual meeting, which was also very big." "His decision has his reason..." "Yes, your husband and wife are like-minded and support each other unconditionally at any time..." Shen Chu can''t stand it. "Jane Mo, why don''t you consider it? I''m your husband''s first love?" "It''s only after consideration that I deliberately show it!" Jane Mo said with some revenge. "..." Shen Chu twitched at the corners of his mouth, "OK, you''re cruel!" Then she and Jane Mo looked at each other, and suddenly... The two women laughed together. Time has always passed quickly under the play. Moreover, with the withdrawal of the grand prize wave by wave, the whole scene has burst into flames. Seeing that there is only the final prize left, those who have won the prize sigh that they have no chance to be the last, and rejoice that they have won the prize more or less. Those who have not been drawn naturally hope that the final luck will come to them one by one There was a lot of excitement ahead, but there was a bit of tension in the control room. Suddenly "Brother Xie, there''s something!" The programmer looked back at Xie Haitian who was eating noodles. Xie Haitian ''sucked and slipped'' a mouthful, sucked in the face still hanging outside his mouth, took out the paper, wiped his mouth and walked over, "are you sure?" The programmer flew his finger on the keyboard, then pointed to a part of the DOS interface and said, "there is a strange IP entry, but I''m not sure." Xie Haitian pulled open the swivel chair, cut into the DOS interface on another computer, and traced his whereabouts with the program written by J "Didi... Didi... Didi..." "Server failure!" Such a message suddenly appeared on the screen. Several programmers frowned slightly, but calmly restored the server data "The other party is also a master!" Xie Haitian touched his chin and sent a text message to Xiao Jing. The other party did it! Xiao Jing pressed out his cell phone and went to Gu Beichen. He whispered in his ear, "the other party is doing it..." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly and didn''t say much. Then he continued to chat with the people around him. With the passage of time, finally, the highest tide has come... The time to unlock the biggest prize, that is, 1% of the emperor''s shares. "The most exciting moment is coming..." the host mobilized the mood of the whole audience, "don''t say everyone, I can''t wait to be drawn is myself!" As soon as the host''s words fell, they attracted laughter and shouting. The atmosphere of the emperor is more casual than that of most employees. "Now, let''s invite Mr. Gu to shake out today''s ultimate award for us in person..." the host''s voice was frustrated, "please Mr. Gu!" Gu Beichen nodded with the people around him, turned indifferently and walked to the main stage The light hit him and moved with his steps. He copied his pocket with one hand, and his steps were not slow, showing indifference under composure. It seemed that the 1% of the emperor''s shares taken out later was simply a small prize. "The fish doesn''t know whether it''s hooked or not?" Li Yunze has a headache. Lin Nannan was fascinated by Gu Beichen. He drank and said, "the third brother does this. I think there are several sets of preparation and emergency plans alone... What are you worried about, second brother?" Li Yunze glanced at him obliquely, "I think you''re stupid to be a soldier..." "..." Lin Nannan was dissatisfied. "You''re professional discrimination." Li Yunze glanced southward at Lin again, and then his eyes fell on Gu Beichen, who had reached the main stage. "The curtain has fallen on the matter of Shi Shaoqin, and the hidden danger of the emperor has been removed... Beichen is light even if there is nothing." "The third brother can handle it." Lin Nan put the water cup, "in fact, I''m quite curious at the moment. No matter whether the other party does it or not, who does he want to put this 1% on first?" "I''m also curious..." Li Yunze smiled. Who''s going to draw the prize with Gu Beichen for the sake of their family? Ordinary people, even if they can trust... But once the last 1% of the emperor''s shares are smashed, it is difficult to ensure that the other party will not repent. He is really curious "Now please Mr. Gu start lottery..." the voice of the host came after Gu Beichen''s simple speech. Gu Beichen walked indifferently to the computer linked to the large screen, and clicked enter to make the screen start rolling The audience held their breath and stared at the scrolling information on the big screen one by one. Because it''s too fast, I haven''t seen who it is, and I''ve rolled over many numbers Gu Beichen waited for more than a minute before bending down and pressing enter to stop the rolling. When the name on the big screen stopped, everyone was surprised Chapter 821 Strange, the whole audience fell on the screen On the big screen, the name of "Shen Chu" stabbed on it. "Shen Chu?!" Someone has made a sound of surprise, and then began to talk from point to surface Almost everyone''s face is full of incredible words. Li Yunze and Lin Nan obviously frowned, as if they had never thought of such a result. "Isn''t that a joke?" Lin asked with a grin to the south. Li Yunze glanced at him angrily and frowned a little tighter. While everyone was talking about the results, Shen Chu didn''t feel that everyone was talking about her, or... At all, she didn''t think that the prize was her. "Congratulations to Miss Shen Chu..." the host reacted after Gu Beichen glanced lightly, "I got the highest award at tonight''s annual meeting, 1% of the shares of emperor!" "Poof..." "Cough, cough..." Shen Chu was drinking champagne. When he heard calling her, he choked in his throat, coughing and looking back Sure enough, her name was written on the big screen. "Damn it..." Shen Chu frowned and looked at Jian Mo with doubts. Jane Mo shook her head, "computer smoke..." "..." Shen Chu pulled at the corners of his mouth, but he didn''t know how to answer Jian Mo''s words. "Please Miss Shen..." the host shouted. "What is this?" Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo and asked with a wrung eyebrow. Jane Mo still shook her head and said softly, "the annual meeting award!" "..." Shen Chu felt that he and Jian mo were talking a little like birds and ducks at the moment. "You go up first to receive the award." Jane reminded her. Shen Chu was vaguely nervous. He didn''t know why. He always felt that this was not unexpected luck However, Shen Chu is a person from a rich family. Although he has experienced many things, he should have some manners and arrogance. He has been on the stage at all... He is still peaceful under the envy, jealousy and hatred of everyone. ¡­¡­ In the monitoring room, Xie Haitian still had sweat on his forehead. He and the programmer looked at the DOS interface with messy code one by one. No one was calm at the moment "Brother Xie, you said... Did you smash it?" A programmer swallowed and looked nervous. Xie Haitian shook his head with a dignified face. "What''s going on?" While Xiao Jingwei''s tight voice came, people had come in with big steps. Xie Haitian quickly got up and greeted him. His voice was a little timid and said, "the other party hit hard. We entangled on the road for a long time, and finally..." he swallowed because of Xiao Jing''s slight cold momentum, and then grinned, "finally, it collapsed." "Means that the result is random?" Xiao Jing''s voice was cold, and the end of his words was slightly raised, showing the pressure of forcing people''s hearts. Xie Haitian felt his scalp numb and nodded his head. Xiao Jing''s eyes crossed several programmers deeply. Finally, without saying anything, he turned and left the monitoring room Xie Haitian couldn''t help swallowing again and was annoyed... It''s time to let J participate. With him, it''s estimated that the other party can''t get good at all. It was still lively outside, but the moment before the end of the annual meeting, everyone''s topic did not leave Shen Chu. "Hey, Jane Mo, I heard she was your former rival in love?" J didn''t know where he came out. When he spoke, he startled Jane. Jane Mo stared at him angrily, "well, she is ah Chen''s first love." "Tut tut... No wonder!" Jane Mo frowned and looked at J suspiciously. J sat down next to her and drank the juice after picking up Jianmo. He didn''t mind Jane Mo seems to be used to his behavior. For J, she is like treating her brother, which is the feeling of relatives. "Those women who can''t eat grapes and say sour talk warmly..." J put down the juice and said, "they said that your husband may have deliberately set up this award and sent Shen Chu shares in this form." Jane Mo''s eyebrows wrinkled tighter "You think, although it''s a computer lottery, it can be said to be a black curtain as long as it doesn''t fall on them." J solemnly analyzed, "they think that your husband feels guilty about Shen Chu, but it''s not easy to give Shen Chu anything. They can only use this form." "And then?" Jane Mo asked. J snapped his fingers and praised Jian Mo''s intelligence in his eyes. "Their unspoken meaning is that you are not as happy as the outside world... And Gu Beichen doesn''t just love you." Jane Mo smiled and didn''t comment on anything. "Hey, you don''t mind at all?" J looked at Jane Mo''s reaction and couldn''t stand it. "Your husband just ''sent'' a lot of wealth to your rival." "That''s a lottery!" "But the program can be changed," J chuckled. "Whoever wants to win the prize doesn''t need me. Ordinary programmers can handle it." "Oh, you mean ah Chen did it on purpose..." "Possible!" "Don''t let him go to bed that night..." J''s eyes lit up, "I knew you were the best!" "But what does this have to do with you?" Jane was puzzled. "..." J was stunned, and then he looked like he knew later, "yes... It has nothing to do with me?!" "It has nothing to do with you. Are you still so concerned?" The voice of light Yi came, showing the alienation under indifference. Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen. She saw that his handsome face was tight and obviously unhappy. "Why, I''m not unhappy that you took the shares and sent them to my rival..." Jane Mo joked. "You stretched your face first." Gu Beichen glanced at J coldly, and then said to Jian Mo, "let''s go!" "Don''t wait until it''s over?" Asked Jane mo. "Xiao Jinghui will deal with..." "Are you going to heaven night? I''m going too!" J also hurried up. Gu Beichen didn''t intend to talk to him at all. When J saw him, he looked pitifully at Jian mo. Jane smiled. "How come you''re getting back to life? Get angry with a child?" "Should I thank him generously and instigate my wife not to let me go to bed?" Gu Beichen asked with a smile in a low voice. "..." Jane Mo immediately laughed. "That''s what your wife said, not what I said..." J muttered discontentedly. But he also wanted to go to heaven night. He didn''t dare to confront Gu Beichen head-on. He just looked at Jian Mo and looked like you did it. After getting along these days, J knows very well that he just needs to ask Jian Mo to agree, and Gu Beichen''s opinions can be ignored automatically Obviously, he is right! When Gu Beichen and others drove to heaven night together, Lu Yinping received a phone call. "It means that the final result is really random?" "Brother Ping, that man is Shen Chu!" "Shen Chu?" After Lu Yinping said softly, he immediately smiled at the corners of his mouth, "it seems that I want to meet her on behalf of Gu mohuai..." Chapter 822 Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and walked calmly down the aisle of heaven night to the box where the four young people in Los Angeles often meet "Think about the four of us getting together. It seems to be a very long time ago." Lin Nan said with a little sigh, "I''m in the army. I can''t help myself. It''s hard to come back. Either you''re not here or he''s not here..." Li Yunze copied his pockets with both hands and walked carelessly His sight inadvertently fell on Gu Beichen''s hand holding Jian Mo, and he suddenly laughed. "Second brother, what are you laughing at?" Lin whispered to the south. J who followed him looked at Li Yunze curiously "Just thinking..." Li Yunze''s voice is not big or small, which is the height that several people can hear. "When I first saw Beichen coming here with foam." Lin Nannan was stunned and then laughed, "tut Tut, you didn''t see it at that time... I saw that my third brother was jealous with my third sister-in-law!" "You were almost lovelorn at that time, and you were in the mood to see Beichen jealous?" Li Yunze asked faintly. "..." Lin grinned to the south, "second brother, do you have human nature?" "He has no opposite sex. What human nature does he have?" Gu Beichen''s faint words floated and pushed open the door of the box. Li Yunze stopped and the ever-changing emotion on Jun''s face, "the most inhuman thing in the world is yourself..." "No!" Jane Mo stopped and smiled at the people behind her. "Ah Chen is very human to me." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Lin Nannan, Li Yunze and j looked at Jian Mo and smiled proudly. Then, Gu Beichen also picked his eyebrows proudly "This is totally fucking dog abuse!" Lin Nannan''s temper is a little hot now, but he doesn''t dare to attack in front of Gu Beichen. "Now I want to ask the shadow area in your hearts..." J made up a knife innocently on his face, then blinked with Jane Mo happily, followed her and Gu Beichen into the box. Lin looked south at Li Yunze, "shit, if this boy is my soldier, if I don''t fuck him, he can''t get up straight, labor and capital won''t be surnamed Lin!" Li Yunze said, "the problem is... He''s not your soldier!" Then he looked sympathetically at Lin and stepped into the box. "..." Lin Xiangnan stood in his place, some crying and laughing. This one is still not a brother. Is it fun to ridicule others for their own comfort?! Lin Nan secretly feigned and entered the box However, as soon as he entered, he felt that the atmosphere was a little strange. "How..." Lin Nanfang just opened his mouth and saw that there was another woman in the box, still... Drunk! "She... Who?" Lin looked South and asked Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen said faintly, "warm." "She''s just warm?!" Lin screamed to the south. He was frightened by Gu Beichen''s fierce eyes and swallowed. Then he whispered, "but, boss long, what''s the situation?" The cold face of the Dragon owl was gloomy, and a pair of black pupils dyed with ink were deep and bottomless. "That..." Jane Mo walked to the warmth. "Let me take her to the guest room and have a rest first?" Then she looked at J, "J, give me a hand." "Oh..." J answered angrily, went to help the warmth that had been drunk into mud with Jane Mo, and left the box. "What''s going on?" Gu Beichen took out a cigarette and lit it. The Dragon owl looked indifferent and couldn''t hear any emotion in his voice. "She wants me to lose face in front of you..." "Boss long, you haven''t dealt with her yet?" Lin Nan was a little afraid of death and said, "I thought you had it done. Bring it to us." Lin Qingyan shouted to the South: "it''s early and late for the owl." "You brought warmth because of me?" Gu Beichen was silent and suddenly opened his mouth. Li Yunze frowned and looked puzzled. "What do you mean?" Lin Nan also wrung his eyebrows. "I''ll bring my sister-in-law here... Is it something?" "About the shares tonight?" Li Yunze asked calmly, but obviously, he was basically sure. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly and flicked the ash, "the 1% share must be drawn to Shen Chu in the end." At first, the other party just thought he would put it on someone If the other party wants to transfer the shares finally, it naturally has to fight against the program written in the background. In the end, it will fall on Shen Chu. It seems to be an accident caused by the struggle between programmers on both sides. In fact, it is just a cover up. "Someone has been sent to monitor Shen Chu. If someone contacts her, they will know who the other party is..." the Dragon owl said faintly, "I come back without warmth to divert attention. It''s not easy to fish." "Tut tut..." Lin Nan shook his head, "can I understand that... One of you used warmth and the other used Shen Chu?" Long Xiao and Gu Beichen both swept their fierce eyes towards Lin Nannan. He subconsciously retreated a little, "the truth is always hard to accept." Li Yunze glared at him, "be serious." "Very serious..." Lin Nannan casually asked, "is that part of the plan for the three brothers to let me back?" "I''m afraid Yuanda''s account book needed to be decoded..." Gu Beichen extinguished the cigarette butts in the ashtray. Lin Nan has frowned, "military password?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered lightly, "while fishing out the emperor''s mysterious shareholder, I will solve the matter of Mo''er''s father at the same time." The military password cannot be passed on. Although the Gu family and the Lin family have a good relationship, there is no reason for the Lin family to crack an account book for him... That''s only Lin Nannan. Fortunately, it''s the lunar new year. He hasn''t come back for the new year for several years. Coming back after the competition this year will not attract other people''s attention. ¡­¡­ Night, especially deep in winter. The new year is approaching, and the streets are decorated with lights and colors. Shen Chu stopped the car and walked to the elevator But after a few steps, she always felt a little chilly behind her... Subconsciously, she slowed down and looked back. There is no abnormality within sight of the parking lot. Slightly frowned, Shen Chu turned back and continued to walk to the elevator... But without taking a few steps, the hairy feeling appeared again. The pace at his feet accelerated for a few minutes. Looking at the elevator just stopping at B2, Shen Chu hurriedly pressed the door open and entered the elevator, and then quickly pressed the close key I don''t know whether it''s tension or fear. Shen Chu''s breath is a little dignified She didn''t catch her breath until the elevator door closed. But before his breath fell, he heard a "Ding". Shen Chu''s pupils widened slightly and watched the elevator door open The breath seemed to freeze in an instant. Shen Chu even clenched his handbag nervously. Timely, the figure standing outside the elevator came in at the moment when the elevator door opened Chapter 823 "Miss Shen, I haven''t seen you for a long time..." the person who came in said hello first. Shen Chu''s heart suddenly fell back when she mentioned her voice. Looking at her neighbor on the same floor, she secretly mocked that she was too nervous. "I went on a business trip and came back today." Shen Chu said with a smile. The neighbor pressed the floor number. Shen Chu found that she had just closed the elevator door and didn''t press the floor at all... No wonder the elevator opened again. She was crying because she was stupid After secretly mocking himself, Shen Chu looked at his neighbor and felt what he had just said to her. He asked, "what did you just say?" "You don''t look well. Aren''t you feeling well?" Asked the neighbor. Shen Chu pulled the corners of his mouth and shook his head, "no... I''m a little tired." She swallowed quietly. "Have you just come back?" "Just went upstairs and remembered that the key had fallen into the car. Come down and take it..." "Oh......" Shen Chu nodded, a little frightened. She pulled the corners of her mouth and smiled. Her eyes subconsciously looked at the rotating numbers The elevator is climbing. A figure stands in front of the elevator in the underground garage. Looking at the rising numbers, a strange and cold smile overflows from the corners of his mouth. When the elevator stopped on the 17th floor, the figure had a deep view, and then turned and left The calm night surface covered all the agitation. The news that Shen Chu won the highest award at the annual meeting and the emperor''s 1% share spread widely Gradually, in this night, a typhoon hung up for a while. In the night of heaven, Jane and j sent warmth to the guest room and didn''t leave. "Don''t you go to Gu Beichen?" J asked curiously. Jane Mo glanced at him, "it''s estimated that they have something to talk about. When I''m there, they have to worry about me..." J tilted his mouth and said, "you''re so tired of living, you might as well be..." he suddenly stopped his mouth and didn''t continue to say anything later. Jian Mo glanced at him and knew that he was talking about Mo palace... The corners of his mouth were pulled down a little far fetched, and the sour bitterness immediately spread in his heart. Gu Beichen had been talking with them for an hour. Considering Jian Mo''s body, he didn''t stop. After saying hello, he left heaven night with Jian mo. J didn''t follow back. He was curious about everything because of his experience Thinking of the Dragon owls, Gu Beichen didn''t worry, so he asked him to stay and play. "Ah Chen, are you hiding something from me?" Jane Mo nestled in Gu Beichen''s arms, and her hands were a little restless. Gu Beichen was made comfortable by her, but he was also worried. He grabbed her hand with a slight sigh. His voice was a little hoarse and asked, "what do you want to ask?" "It depends on what you want to say..." Jian Mo wanted to take a hand, but Gu Beichen held it tighter. Looking at her with a sly smile on her face, Gu Beichen felt a fire in her lower abdomen "You really want to torture me!" Gu Beichen sighed helplessly and didn''t let go of Jian Mo''s hand. He just pressed on the restlessness. While kissing Jane Mo, she asked her to help him solve Gu Beichen''s voice showed the charm of hoarseness and slowly opened his mouth: "some shares of the emperor are in the hands of unknown celebrities. There are possible uncertain factors. I want to eliminate..." His voice, with Jane Mo''s action, has begun to become thick. After listening, Jane Mo stopped, "Shen Chu was drawn..." "Well, it''s my conspiracy!" Gu Beichen has nothing to hide. Jane Mo frowned, "ah Chen..." Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo''s lips and didn''t let her talk After liberation, he said in her ear, "Mo''er, my hands are not clean!" After Jane Mo heard this, her heart suddenly hurt, "ah Chen!" Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo''s earrings and said in a low and hoarse voice, "it''s my fault to use Shen Chu, but it''s only her..." Jane mopped her lower lip and said nothing. "Don''t worry, I won''t let her get hurt, huh?" Gu Beichen raised his head slightly, and the eagle''s eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply. Jane nodded. "Hmm!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised an arc, kissed the corner of her mouth and said, "I can even use myself. For me... No one can use it except you and children, okay?" Jane nodded. She knew very well If people in shopping malls are a little soft hearted, they will be swallowed by others and there will be no residue left. Besides, have you experienced so much ah Chen? "It''s not easy for Shen Chu to come out," Jian Mo said softly. "Except for your love, just let her not go back." She looked at Gu Beichen deeply, with an undisguised desire for possession at the bottom of her eyes, "I know you can handle it well." "Yes." Gu Beichen got up and went to the bathroom with Jian Mo in his arms. After cleaning each other, he returned to bed. The next day, the weather in Los Angeles suddenly became gloomy and the temperature dropped a little. The news is all about the celebration of the emperor''s new year. Of course, the most talked about is that Shen Chu won the share award. Also in all kinds of jealousy, the basic version of gossip has become Gu Beichen never forgets Shen Chu''s old love. In addition, Jian Mo is proud of his pet. He may turn to the embrace of his old lover. In this regard, Jane Mo can''t be interviewed by natural media But Gu Beichen didn''t come out to stop gossip. Emperor Entertainment and China entertainment, as the media participating in the annual meeting, also avoid the important and take the light. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo went to pick up Jian Jie early in the morning, and then a family of three went to the mall to buy new year goods "Daddy, is this OK?" Jane Jie asked with a couplet in her hand. Gu Beichen looked and nodded with a smile. Jian Jie happily put the couplet in the shopping cart and continued to pick things with Jian mo There are many people buying new year goods in supermarkets, and naturally there are many people talking about today''s news When I saw a family of three people buying new year''s products like ordinary people, I was puzzled one after another. At the same time, I was more ironic under the sour psychology. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo naturally don''t care. Jian Jie is happy because his family buys new year goods for the first time. He''s not in the mood to pay attention to others The family was relaxed and complacent. In contrast, Shen Chu felt that he was going crazy. The mobile phone kept shaking on the desk, and Shen Chu hung up angrily. But after a while, it rang again Picked it up, looked at the call, Shen Chu got up, went to the stairwell, and then picked it up, "Mom, don''t say anything... I won''t give him this share!" "Xiao Chu, your father..." "Is he my father?" Shen Chu sneered, "Mom, you can live with low self-esteem for your love, but can you stop letting my life pay for your love?!" There was a moment of silence on the phone Shen Chu frowned and heard a cold smile from the opposite side, "it''s not your father who wants... It''s me who wants to buy it with you!" "Who are you?" Chapter 824 "It doesn''t matter who I am..." the cold laughter came low, "I just came to do business with you..." "What if I don''t sell it?" Shen Chu''s eyes were slightly cold. "Are you going to tell me that I can''t see my mother?" "Tut Tut, have you seen too many series?" The other party smiled, "I''m a serious businessman. How can I do anything against the law?" Shen Chu closed her eyes. She didn''t believe what the other party said. "Come on, what do you want?" Shen Chu asked as he opened his eyes. "The emperor''s shares in your hand..." the other party slowly said, "I can buy them with you at a price of more than 20% of the market price." "I can''t decide now." Shen Chu gritted his teeth and said, "although I won the prize last night, there are still procedures for transferring the shares to my name." "A transfer contract..." the other party sneered. "The emperor has his own exclusive lawyer team. How can such a contract be slow?" "Fast and slow are not what I can decide!" Shen Chu roared angrily. The other party was silent, "Oh, then look after it yourself... I don''t know if your mother can wait because of her delicate appearance." "What do you want to do?" Shen Chu shrieked slightly. "What do I want to do? Who knows?" The other party sneered, "Shen Chu, I''m impatient... I hope it can be done before the new year, and everyone can have a happy new year." "Where''s Shen Hangzhi?" Shen Chu asked angrily. "Doodle doodle..." Shen Chu was so angry that he almost threw his cell phone out when he listened to the busy voice inside. She tried to take a deep breath and then dialed Luo yueman''s mobile phone, but she couldn''t get through She dialed Shen Hangzhi again, but went to the message box. Shen Chu closed his eyes, and the anger that had just been suppressed came up again The mobile phone rang at the right time, and Shen Chu hurriedly picked it up. However, the urgency of the bottom of his eyes was a little angry when he saw the call. "Xiao tezhu?" "Miss Shen, the share transfer agreement has been drawn up," Xiao Jing''s voice came faintly. "You have time to come up at the moment, and you need to talk about the specific matters." "OK..." Shen Chu answered, "I''ll go up now." "Good!" Xiao Jing answered and hung up. Shen Chu frowned slightly. He was so worried about the share transfer and was obviously confused. After talking to the people in the office, Shen Chu went up to the top floor and went to find Xiao Jing. "Because it involves the overall interests of the emperor," Xiao Jing said calmly, facing the computer screen to Shen Chu. "These are the rights and obligations that shareholders can enjoy and need to comply with. Take a look first." Shen Chu glanced roughly, "what does electronic contract signing mean?" "Because this 1% is from the lottery," Xiao Jing explained. "In order not to affect some rights and interests of the emperor, this electronic contract is to prevent some unnecessary things from happening..." This remark was a little tactful, but Shen Chu understood it. It was to prevent her from transferring again. "If Miss Shen is meaningless, I can ask a lawyer to come up and sign in person..." Shen Chu was a little dignified. She didn''t want to sign, or even resist it. "What doubts does Miss Shen have?" Xiao Jing whispered softly. His eyes were obviously stained with a little smile, but it made people feel a little gloomy. "No!" "OK, I''ll call the lawyer up..." Xiao Jing smiled. After calling the lawyer, he went to get the tablet and inserted it into the computer. The lawyer came up quickly and told Shen Chu some things. Xiao Jing handed the stylus to Shen Chu. She looked at it and finally signed her name on the electronic tablet Synchronization, the signature fell on the electronic contract. "After everything is correct," Xiao Jing motioned the lawyer to leave first, looked at the signature and said, "I will transfer one of the contracts to your mailbox..." After the lawyer left, Shen Chu asked, "Xiao Jing, how could Beichen take the emperor''s shares as a prize?" Xiao Jing shrugged, "people are stupid and have more money..." "..." Shen Chu frowned and stared at Xiao Jing angrily. Xiao Jing smiled. "It''s a good thing anyway. As for what Chen Shao is doing, you don''t care about him!" Shen Chu pulled the corners of his mouth Is that a good thing? It seems not at all to her! "I''ll go down first..." "Good!" Xiao Jing answered. After Shen Chu left for a while, he lowered his eyes and looked at the electronic contract before calling Gu Beichen. "Chen Shao, it has been signed." "Yes." "Brother Xiao said that someone has contacted Shen Chu," Xiao Jing continued. "What is available is Luo yueman''s mobile phone. Who is it for the time being? I don''t know." "It''s good to have a fish on the hook..." Gu Beichen''s indifferent voice came. Xiao Jing was silent. "Do I want to go over and have a look at J?" "Don''t..." Gu Beichen took the things selected by Jian Jie and put them into the shopping cart. He smiled softly with him, motioned him to continue, and then said, "he is still measured in this regard." "OK..." Xiao Jing answered. Gu Beichen hung up the phone and saw Jian Mo looking at him with a bottle of sauce in his hand, "what''s the matter?" "Are you still here so busy?" Jian Mo put the sauce in the shopping cart and asked with a smile, "the emperor won''t have to go to work for the new year?" "No..." Gu Beichen cuddled Jian Mo''s waist and pushed the shopping cart in one hand. "In addition to being on duty every day, there are ten days of vacation." "Tut Tut, it''s really humanized..." "Only a good rest can you work most effectively." Gu Beichen said with a smile, "this is one of the reasons why many people want to work for the emperor." Jian Mo agrees with Gu Beichen''s management philosophy very much. In fact, there are not many people who really want to do work around the new year... It''s better to let them go for a few more days and follow their wishes. The three members of Gu Beichen''s family, like ordinary people, naturally have to buy new clothes after purchasing new year''s goods Jian Mo and Jian Jie were selected by Gu Beichen himself this time. And his, of course, was selected by Jian Mo and Jian Jie after discussion. The family is filled with the busy and happy atmosphere of the upcoming new year, especially the first new year together, which is naturally a few points more than others expect But under such expectation, a wave of undercurrent is gradually approaching in the turbulent ¡­¡­ "Electronic contract?" Lu Yinping frowned and pondered before asking, "meaning that if you want to make 1% of the shares under this contract under my name, you must rewrite a procedure to turn the locked contract into transferable?" "In theory..." Lu Yinping sneered. "I thought I could control the shares in Shen Chu''s hand? What a joke..." he sneered, his eyes became cold and said, "let Shen Chu bring the electronic version of the contract and let Amun decipher it!" Chapter 825 "Good!" An answer came from the other end of the phone. After hanging up the phone, Lu Yinping sat on the sofa, shaking the red wine glass in his hand, and the smile from the corners of his mouth filled the air. "It seems that... I have to show my face at the shareholders'' meeting in the new year." Lu Yinping raised his hand slightly with the cup and slowly opened his mouth to his shadow on the window, "cheers!" Lu Yinping raised her eyebrows and gradually filled her eyes with a treacherous smile. At the same time, she put the cup to her lips Looking up, he poured all the scarlet liquor in the cup into his mouth. When the red wine spread through the taste buds... His nerves were excited. It''s like that Gu Beichen''s blood will be eaten away! Lu Yinping took out his mobile phone, transferred a group of numbers and dialed out Soon, it was connected. "What''s the situation now?" Lu Yinping asked faintly. "News came from the prison and said it was going to die..." the voice on the other side was mixed with an indescribable emotion. "However, I don''t know who arranged the medical team to come here. It''s estimated that I can''t die!" "Oh?" Lu Yinping laughed, "this is to let Lord Luo grow old and feel the blessing of ten thousand people riding?" The other party ''hey hey'' smiled, "brother Ping, I think it''s terrible..." "He used to like to play tender..." Lu Yinping sneered. "Now he is played by a group of hungry men..." "That flower probably won''t work!" The voice inside began to be obscene, "brother Ping, you said... Did Gu Beichen do it?" "Who knows?" Lu Yinping sneered, "in the end, there are many people in the world who want Luo ye to enjoy happiness." "That''s..." "Pay attention to the situation of the prison. I don''t want me to fail... Lord Luo came out for a walk." Lu Yinping took the red wine and poured another glass. "Don''t worry, how can Lord Luo be willing to cook meat so many times a day?" A laughing voice came, "besides, having fun, I''m afraid I won''t go..." Lu Yinping smiled and hung up the phone while his eyes became cruel and deep. "Lord Luo, just enjoy it in prison..." Lu Yinping murmured to himself. "Your unfulfilled wish, as a junior, I want to complete it for you." ¡­¡­ The news heat of the emperor continued, and there was no trend of decline for three days. While people gossip, everyone is caught in the eagerness of purchasing new year goods and waiting for the holiday. Jian Mo didn''t pick up the design drawing years ago, but took advantage of Gu Beichen''s absence to solve the double-layer QR code he drew It seems that only in the layered QR code, one''s time will not be cranky. Jane Mo stopped the action in her pen, and her sight gradually became lax without focus. Shen Chu said she wanted to see a doctor Did she really get psychosis?! At the thought of this, Jane Morse began to be inexplicably anxious... This problem, now she can''t think about it. Rubbed his temples, and Jane Mo got up to pour water "Mommy, are you finished?" Jian Jie was lying on the table writing his winter vacation homework. When he saw Jian Mo coming down, he asked. "I don''t want to pour anything in the evening," Jane said "Eat dumplings!" Jian Jie looked up. "When J and daddy left, if you want to ask what to eat, let me suggest eating dumplings." "..." Jane Mo was helpless. This dumpling seems to be something Shi Shaoqin can''t mention. It''s J, because he expected too much for the first time and didn''t eat it... He has an obsession with dumplings. "OK, make dumplings in the evening..." Jane Mo said and went upstairs. Jane Jie frowned strangely. I don''t know why. Just now he felt a little... Mommy seems to be running away from something?! Jane Mo closed the door of her study, her mind was a little empty, and her heart began to panic again. It''s like a chain reaction When it comes to dumplings, when you think of Shi Shaoqin and Mo palace, you will naturally think of her rolling down the stairs and Xiao Yan leaving her! Breathing became heavy. Jane Mo drank a few mouthfuls of water quickly, but she couldn''t hold down the rising anxiety. She tilted her head to the desk, her eyes fell on the QR code paper, and walked over weakly Put down the cup, Jane Mo took the mobile phone and began to scan the decomposed photos in an attempt to stabilize her mood. "And she not only have the joy of beating heart, but also want the happiness of smiling at ease..." "There is only one Jane foam that belongs to me in the world. How can I not cherish it?" "I want to eat, sleep and talk with you... In fact, as long as I am with you, everything is good!" "With the heart that loves you most, accompany you to walk the furthest life..." Jane Mo looked at the love words in her eyes, and her anxiety was gradually dissipated. The fundus of his eyes was filled with shallow water mist. Jian Mo sat on the chair with a sour nose and pressed the paper on his chest... While closing his eyes, he lay back on the seat. Is she... Really going to see a psychologist? She didn''t want ah Chen to worry, but if this mood continued, she seemed to feel that she would be out of control one day. After a while, Jian Mo slowly opened his eyes and looked at the mobile phone whose screen had been dark. After a while, he picked it up and sent a text message to Shen Chu Your doctor friend, I want to see you! Shen Chu was driving and didn''t read the text message, but his face was full of sullen breath "Squeak!" The sound of braking stopped outside a two-story villa. Shen Chu looked at it, gritted his teeth, picked up the computer and got out of the car. Rang the doorbell, and there was a voice of inquiry "Shen Chu!" Shen Chu gritted his teeth and said. "Just a moment, please!" Shen Chu couldn''t hide her irritability. She took her cell phone and wanted to call Luo yueman again See a text message, open it, stunned for a few seconds, then react to what Jian Mo said, and then reply to the past: do you want to see you before or after the new year? Jane Mo: finish the New Year! Shen Chu: OK! After replying to the text message, Shen Chu dialed Luo yueman''s number. It was still turned off The door, opened at the right time, was a man in his thirties with a tiger back and a bear waist. Shen Chu frowned slightly, subconsciously beating a drum in his heart, "did you ask me?" "No, it''s my boss!" The man said without tone. "Where are the people?" "Inside..." Shen Chu frowned. Conscious of safety, she refused to go in. "Where''s my mother?" The man was silent and then motioned to Shen Chu. Shen Chu looked with his eyes. Sure enough... Luo yueman stood in front of the window with his hands clenched, and Shen Hangzhi was right behind her. Shen Chu sneered. She felt really sad. She had a mother who could sell her daughter for her humble love! "Please..." Shen Chu grits her teeth. She doesn''t care about the emperor''s shares. If this is her "debt" to pay her mother! She looked at Luo yueman coldly in despair. Shen Chu was already discouraged The last time She used Beichen''s misunderstanding of her to completely distinguish her sad life! Shen Chu gritted his teeth and took back his sight. Holding the computer bag in his hand, he clenched it tightly and resolutely walked in Chapter 826 "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing looked at the positioning point on the computer screen and called Gu Beichen after Shen Chu entered the villa. "Shen Chu has gone in..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered and said to j, who measured a group of models in his office, "people have gone in." "Don''t worry..." J glanced at the moving point on the computer and continued to work on the model. He wrote the positioning program for the electronic version of the contract As long as Shen Chu takes the contract with him, wherever he goes, he can automatically feed back to the main contract and him. J''s face was suddenly filled with excitement, and his eyes had strong self-confidence. He was looking forward to what to do next... It must be very exciting! Thinking, J looked up at Gu Beichen who continued to process the documents and said, "you said, if it''s done this time, take me to the amusement park..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered without raising his head. "So perfunctory..." J wrinkled his nose dissatisfied. Gu Beichen looked up after signing on a document, looked at J''s appearance, and put a shallow smile on one side of his thin lip, "should it be perfunctory?" He said, "it seems that you don''t particularly want to go..." "..." J immediately stared and worried, "who said that?!" Gu Beichen smiled, took another document and said, "take you to the beach. The climate there should be warmer... The playground is also bigger." On the seashore, there is the largest amusement park invested by the Dragon empire in China. He also wants to take Xiaojie there. "Really?" J''s eyes are bright. "Really!" J smiled happily just like a child "Don''t patronize Le," Gu Beichen still didn''t look up. "If the next thing messes up, I''ll send you back directly." "..." J tilted his mouth and hummed, "your people are not my opponent. What''s the other party to be afraid of?!" Gu Beichen raised his eyes and glanced at J. while there was a smile in the depths of the ink pupil, he dropped his eyes. At the right time, the mobile phone vibrated on the desk... A text message was inserted. Gu Beichen took it and opened it. It''s from Shen chufa. There are only three words... Sorry! Gu Beichen looked at the text message and leaned back slowly on the seat... Eagle eyes became deep. She has really changed... Or is trying to change! ¡­¡­ Shen Chu stood on the steps and didn''t go directly into the villa. He just held his mobile phone in his hanging hand. On the screen that gradually darkened, the text message just sent could be vaguely seen. "Miss Shen, please!" The man who opened the door was obviously impatient. Shen Chu took a look at him, bit his teeth and walked in with his computer bag. There was no light in it, two people were sitting, and the rest were standing It was daytime, because the heavy curtains pulled, but it was dark except for the light at the door and the dim light from the computer. Shen Chu frowned secretly and looked at the people sitting. One of them turned his back and held a red wine cup in his hand, showing a lazy feeling of evil. The door was closed and Shen Chu''s subconscious heart was shocked... Instinctively, I felt a chill rising from the soles of my feet. If the computer screen is not on in front of the person facing you, the whole line of sight will be dark. Shen Chu hardly thought about it and knew The man who turned his back on him was so mysterious that he didn''t want her to know who he was?! Shen Chu stepped forward and sat down opposite the man in front. "Hello, Miss Shen, I''m a lawyer..." the lawyer said, "when you sign the equity transfer, 20% higher than the market price, we will also call your account." With that, he pushed the prepared contract to Shen Chu. Shen Chu didn''t look at it. "It has been stated in the contract that all paper contracts I signed are invalid except electronic contracts!" The lawyer frowned slightly. Although he had guessed, he was still helpless. "The most important thing is that even if I want to sign, you have to be able to unlock the electronic version..." Shen Chu sneered. "Do you think Gu will turn this award into an unstable factor?" There was anger in the sarcastic voice. The lawyer looked at the man with his back to Shen Chu, "this..." "Let Amun handle it." The man''s voice was faint, with a smile under the evil spirit. Shen Chu looked at the speaker and wanted to say something. At last, he endured it and pushed his computer over. Her people have come. If they can untie it, she has nothing to say... If they can''t untie it, it has nothing to do with her. Shen Chu secretly gritted his teeth and looked at the man who came and took her computer. His angry hope could not be solved. Time, little by little J is playing with the model while watching the reaction on the computer. Gu Beichen is only dealing with his own affairs. After dealing with them today, he had a lot of time with Mo''er and Xiao Jie years ago. "Dong Dong!" There was a knock at the door. Gu Beichen answered indifferently, and Susan came in She put the annual report on Gu Beichen''s desk. "Chen Shao, the front desk called and said it was a woman looking for you..." As soon as he heard about the woman, J suddenly looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen said indifferently, "when did you become Mo''er''s eyes?" "I just want to see if you can cheat..." J hummed. Susan smiled. "If Chen Shao cheated, I think I can have an affair when I get off work!" "Then you''re finished," Gu Beichen turned the annual report indifferently, "don''t want to get married in this life..." "..." Susan looked depressed as soon as she heard J''s unbridled laughter. Especially when she heard J''s unbridled laughter, she wanted to throw the pen holder in front of J''s mouth and block it. "What''s your name?" Gu Beichen suddenly asked. "Surname Ge, I''ll tell you." Gu Beichen stopped and looked up at Susan. The ink pupil became deep, "take her to the lounge and wait." "Good!" Susan answered, turned out of the office and called the front desk. In the office, Gu Beichen is still dealing with business. J is busy with his own affairs Suddenly J''s eyes suddenly lit up. He was sitting on the carpet. Holding the computer, he went to Gu Beichen''s desk, "the other party really has two sons..." Gu Beichen looked at J, "untied?" "Not yet..." J grinned. "It''s so easy to untie that they don''t take the bait?!" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered indifferently. J didn''t move, just quietly watching the program he wrote changing, and his eyes were filled with excitement. Gu Beichen put down his work, leaned back in his chair and watched J''s expression change This bureau has been deployed since J came to Los Angeles. Outsiders and even insiders believe that j is here to catch insects in the network Department... All this is just a cover up. When all the procedures are written, the electronic version of the trap has been started since the announcement that the maximum award is 1% of the emperor''s shares! Chapter 827 Shen Chu was in the dark, listening to the strange sound of hitting the keyboard, saying he was not nervous. It was all a lie. She swallowed it secretly and looked around... It was basically black within her sight. "Does Miss Shen need a drink?" Lu Yinping shook his red wine glass. "The Cabernet Sauvignon here is not bad." "No need..." Shen Chu refused coldly. She doesn''t know who this man is. With Shen Hangzhi''s experience of sending her to Gu mohuai''s bed at the beginning, she doesn''t want to make the same stupid mistake twice. "Tut Tut, originally... I wanted to cooperate later and have a drink with Miss Shen." Shen Chu sneered, "a person who doesn''t dare to show his face, have a drink with me? I drink this wine. It''s really humble." Lu Yinping smiled. "When you need to sign, you naturally want to see me." Shen Chu frowned and didn''t speak. "Wait a minute, it seems that Miss Shen is willing to appreciate..." Shen Chu suddenly had some physical rejection of the man''s voice. It was clear that the other party didn''t say anything or show anything, but he just felt fluffy in his heart. "Wait a minute..." Shen Chu answered perfunctorily, and his eyes fell on Amun. It''s been an hour. Obviously, his contract can''t be unlocked. Emperor''s IT department is not vegetarian. I''m afraid it''s also trying to protect this share. Lu Yinping didn''t speak any more. In such a dark environment, the taste of magenta wine was happy. But with the passage of time, both lawyers and Shen Chu were on pins and needles. ¡­¡­ Emperor, President''s office. J stared at the process of computer program modification and occasionally hit the keyboard. The excitement of the fundus of his eyes had filled his face. "The people around this person can still use..." J said without face at all. "It''s much easier to use than those people you hire with high salary." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep and didn''t speak. Those invited by the emperor are regular talents. Even Xie Haitian cannot enter. J and the people in that man''s hands are hackers. Such people have a nature... Only interest and no restriction. To put it bluntly, it is a time bomb at any time... It means that when you are unhappy, you can make the program according to your own temperament. What text message did you send to Gu Beichen? The message came back after a long time: Mommy is making dumplings Gu Beichen looked deep, looked at J and said, "do you want Mo''er to make dumplings?" "I didn''t say..." J said proudly, "I just told Xiao Jie." "What''s the difference?" Gu Beichen said softly, and Jun''s face sank. He was obviously dissatisfied with J''s always "instructing" Jian Mo to do what he wanted to eat for him. "Drop -" J hasn''t answered yet. There is a harsh sound from the computer. Gu Beichen frowned. Mo Tong looked at J deeply and didn''t speak. "Mom, I was forced to lift the last lock..." J scolded with some dissatisfaction. Subconsciously, he wanted to fight with the other party. "What are you doing?" Gu Beichen asked coldly. J was stunned and suddenly remembered that his purpose was not to compete with each other, "Hey, I almost forgot..." Gu Beichen has a slight headache. That''s why the emperor will never attract hackers! ¡­¡­ "Brother Ping, untie..." Amun looked at Lu Yinping with pride at the bottom of his eyes. "You can sign the transfer agreement." Amun took Shen Chu''s computer and connected it with the one in front of the lawyer. "Only five minutes..." Amun said, connecting the handwriting tablets on both sides. Lu Yinping slowly turned the swivel chair, and Shen Chu subconsciously looked at him But when he saw the man whose face was covered by a cap with only one mouth, he suddenly hissed coldly. "Miss Shen seems to have a problem with me?" Lu Yinping asked with a smile. "If you want to sign soon, don''t you say it''s only five minutes?" Shen chuleng hum, she just wants to finish signing quickly so that she can leave. Lu Yinping is not in a hurry. The lawyer is looking at and revising the transfer agreement. Each clause will leave Shen Chu or Gu Beichen''s lawyer group speechless "It''s done." Lawyers are obviously experts in this field, with amazing speed. Shen Chu glanced at the lawyer, glanced at the corners of his mouth and didn''t speak. "Miss Shen, please..." Lu Yinping hooked one corner of his mouth and motioned. Shen Chu gritted his teeth, took the stylus, looked at the modified equity transfer contract, and signed his name with great care. Lu Yinping looked at it and slightly hooked the corners of his mouth. Then he took the stylus and wrote his name on the tablet "OK? Then I can go..." Shen Chu said and wanted to get up. "Miss Shen, so anxious?" Lu Yinping put down his stylus and said, "don''t you have a drink?" "No, you remember to charge the money to my account..." Shen Chu paused. "Of course, I wouldn''t be surprised if you have already paid to Shen Hangzhi''s account!" Then she turned and walked to the door Not a long distance, Shen Chu didn''t take a step, his heart lifted a point... It''s false to say he''s not afraid. It was fine before coming, but this man was mysterious Lu Yinping looked up slowly. He didn''t speak. Naturally, no one stopped Shen Chu. Until Shen Chu walked out of the villa door, someone asked, "brother Ping, why don''t you leave her? Why is she also a beauty..." "Where''s the woman?" Lu Yinping sneered, "I''ve been played by Gu mohuai. I''m not interested." After a pause, his eyes fell on the electronic contract signed by both sides, "besides, years ago, I didn''t want Gu Beichen to know that this share was no longer in Shen Chu''s hands..." Halfway through the conversation, Lu Yinping suddenly looked at the mosaic gradually appearing on the computer screen and asked Amun, "what''s the matter?" Amun didn''t speak, but hurriedly took the computer and his fingers danced on the keyboard The DOS interface was called out, the string quickly crossed, and the atmosphere suddenly condensed. J''s mouth was full of evil spirits and arrogant smile, his eyes were staring at the computer screen, and he was proud... His fingers were floating on the keyboard quickly. "Drop -" "Ha ha, it''s done..." J said, looking at Gu Beichen with a look of praise. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at J, with thin lips and a shallow evil smile. At the right time, the fundus of his eyes gradually became deep. ¡­¡­ "Brother Ping, this is a trap!" Amun''s face has turned pale. Lu Yinping looked at the computer, "what''s the situation?" Amun bit his teeth and said timidly, "this electronic contract has been written into a Trojan horse program. Once it is changed, it will start..." "Don''t tell me what''s wrong," Lu Yinping seemed to feel something. "Just tell me what''s going on now?" Chapter 828 Amun''s hand holding the mouse had begun to tremble. He swallowed it secretly and then hardened his head and said, "not only the 1% imperial shares just signed by Shen Chu are gone, but also the 3% in your hand..." "What does that mean?" Lu Yinping roared, "ah?!" Amun was so scared that he almost threw the mouse. "Just... You... What you have in your hand..." he stammered because of fear, "the emperor shares in his hand... Are... Gone..." The atmosphere suddenly dropped to freezing point! The lawyer looked at the electronic contract with an ignorant face, just as Amun said Shen Chu should have transferred 1% of her equity, but now Lu Yinping has transferred 3% to Shen Chu! "It''s just a trap..." the lawyer said with trembling lips. "No wonder the emperor wants to use an electronic contract." Looking at the terms, we all thought it was locked with an electronic version. We were afraid that Shen Chu would transfer his equity But now, there is a big bait waiting for the big fish to take the bait. Lu Yinping looked at the lawyer, his eyes became sinister and said, "that is to say... Now the shares are in Shen Chu?" "In theory, yes..." "Why don''t you go after me?" Before the lawyer''s words fell, Lu Yinping was angry with the people on one side. "Yes... Yes!" When the people at the bottom answered the voice, they wanted to chase "Bang!" A loud noise came. Before everyone reacted, they heard a sharp voice at the door, "don''t move!" The sound of "pa" came and the light was turned on. Because everyone was in the dark, the suddenly bright light made everyone turn their heads and close their eyes. When I open it again, I see the black muzzle of the gun, facing them The sirens sounded everywhere. Lu Yinping and others were handcuffed and dragged into the police car. They didn''t seem to understand how things changed like this. Not only him, but also Shen Hangzhi, who was taken away with him, couldn''t figure it out. And Luo yueman has long been hazy with tears "Hang Zhi, do you have to do this to your daughter?" Luo yueman said with tears in his eyes, "it''s all right now!" "Shut up!" Shen hang said coldly, "you didn''t give birth to such an unkind daughter. Can you have the current situation?" "..." Luo yueman looked at Shen Hangzhi, and his tears kept falling. Although he was distressed by Shen Chu, his eyes were full of guilt for Shen Hangzhi at the moment. The police car pulled the people away It took only about two hours from Shen Chu entering the villa to taking Lu Yinping and them away. "Chen Shao, they have all taken away..." Xiao Jing looked at the police car leaving and called Gu Beichen. "Yes." Gu Beichen''s indifferent voice came, "clean up your tail." "I understand..." Gu Beichen answered and hung up. While Xiao Jing chucked up his mobile phone, he saw the captain of the criminal investigation team come over, "team Li, trouble." "Xiao tezhu helped us solve the case. Why is it trouble?" Team Li smiled, "I received a secret order from Interpol before. I didn''t expect this man to be in Los Angeles!" He seemed to sigh, "fortunately, nothing big happened... Thanks to Gu and Xiao tezhu." Xiao Jing lowered his eyes and smiled. As he lifted his eyes, he slowly opened his mouth: "don''t let team Li run away, those who are hard to catch..." "No!" Team Li hurriedly said, "because of the nationality problem, soon... Interpol will also take over." He grinned. "Besides, with the evidence now available, he will be punished." "Since Li is not busy, I''ll do it." "Yes..." team Li smiled. "Then I''ll go first. Xiao tezhu has something to do. Just ask me directly." "OK." After being polite for a while, team Li turned and got into the police car and quickly chased the leaving vehicle. Xiao Jing stood with his hands in his pockets, looked at the leaving car and smiled... Turned to his car and left. When the front of the lively villa was cleared, from one corner, a man with a military cap came out, looked at the villa with a cold sneer and walked in the opposite direction In Los Angeles, Gu Beichen''s territory... What else does Lu Yinping want to do to him? The man sneered at the corners of his mouth. Even Luo Songxian was brought down by Gu Beichen... Lu Yinping, with uneven hair, was in front of him. throw the helve after the hatchet! ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen hung up the phone and looked at J who was repairing the loophole. "I''ll see the servant and go back together later." "Oh..." J answered angrily, as if thinking of something, and asked, "is that really not the woman you fooled around with Jane Mo behind your back?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "a woman who is almost 50 years old, what do you think I''m fooling around?" "Yes!" J nodded, ignored Gu Beichen and continued to repair the loophole. Gu Beichen left the office with one hand and went to the lounge. Standing at the door of the lounge, Gu Beichen looked at the woman inside and rubbed the cup in his hand. The ink pupil was deep and walked in indifferently. Ge Mengru saw Gu Beichen and subconsciously stood up, "President Gu, where''s my daughter?!" "Ledger!" Gu Beichen sat down opposite, two words, without any emotional overflow thin lips. "This is illegal detention..." Ge Mengru said angrily. Gu Beichen slowly raised his eyes, and Han Cui''s eyes sneered at GE Mengru''s anger, "yes... So what?" If it''s gentle, it shows the pressure of pressing people''s hearts. Ge Mengru clenched her hand... And bit her teeth. In this world, people with money and power tend to be more convenient than others. Besides, Gu Beichen, President of the emperor who controls half of the economy of Los Angeles?! "The account book is really not on me..." Ge Mengru softened a little, "Mr. Gu, please, let me see my daughter." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and ignored Ge Mengru. He just took out his cigarette and lit it. All his movements are not slow, but there is invisible pressure. Ge Mengru became more and more anxious. Waiting had worn her patience. At this moment, Gu Beichen''s behavior made her nervous. "President Gu..." "My purpose is very clear," Gu Beichen interrupted Ge Mengru, raised his eyes and looked up at her. "Take it, you can see, and your daughter can get the best treatment." Paused, "I''ll pay for it!" "I really don''t have an account book..." Ge Mengru was worried and made a final struggle. Gu Beichen smiled. "I''m a businessman and don''t do business at a loss... It seems that I can only stop all your daughter''s drugs." Chapter 829 "No!" Ge Mengru panicked. Gu Beichen sneered at GE Mengru''s anxiety. The slender finger lightly lit a cigarette. After flicking the ash off, Gu Beichen took another breath. Curl of disgust in the handsome face diffuse, hazy, showing a sharp cool thin. Ge Mengru only felt weak and fell down in her chair. "President Gu, what happened in those years has nothing to do with me. Why are you..." "Even if I give your daughter back to you, you can save her?" Gu Beichen said softly, and his eyes looked coldly at GE Mengru. Ge Mengru was stunned Yes, in her current economic situation, she can buy some medicine at most to make her daughter less painful However, if you want your daughter to recover, you need to change her kidney... She doesn''t have this ability at all. "I''ll give you time to think about it. I hope you can give me an answer before the new year..." Gu Beichen twisted the cigarette out in the ashtray. "I''m patient, but I don''t know if your daughter can hold up." Gu Beichen got up, ignored Ge Mengru and walked out "Mr. Gu..." Ge Mengru stood up eagerly, "Mr. Gu... Mr. Gu!" Gu Beichen didn''t stop. He stepped out of the lounge indifferently, leaving Ge Mengru alone, frowning and in a dilemma. Susan came in. "Ms. Ge, please!" Ge Mengru looked at her with a heavy face and dragged her tired body out Susan pressed the elevator for her and said with a smile, "if I were you, I would never go against Chen Shao." The elevator door was closed under Ge Mengru''s complicated expression. Susan giggled and turned to the Secretary''s room. Gu Beichen waited for J to fix the loophole before preparing to go back with him When he got to the parking lot and opened the door, he heard the roar of the car engine for a while. When Gu Beichen frowned slightly, the harsh brake sound fell around him. Shen Chu got out of the car and looked menacing, "Gu Beichen, what do you mean?" "Wow..." J lay on the roof and looked like watching a good play. "He reacted quickly!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "what do you mean?" "Emperor award, 1% of the emperor''s shares, I won the prize..." Shen Chu gnashed his teeth. "Is it all your conspiracy from beginning to end?!" Gu Beichen copied his pocket with both hands and looked at Shen Chu with eagle eyes. Shen Chu was furious, "Gu Beichen, why do you rely on it?" "When I do things, I need to ask why?" Gu Beichen asked back. His cold, carved face showed indifference. "Oh!" Shen Chu tilted his head and sneered, as if he was very angry and smiled back, "have you used me like this and asked me?" She gnashed her teeth. "Would you do the same to Jane Mo?" "Gu Beichen will not answer firmly......". Shen Chu suddenly felt very sad Dad uses her, and mom can ignore her feelings for herself. The first love was killed by himself, and now he has to use it "Ha ha..." even if Shen Chu was strong, his eyes were red at the moment. "Gu Beichen, is it a person like me who deserves to be used?" Gu Beichen lowered his eyes, "I can only say that you are the most suitable candidate." Shen Chu smiled sarcastically again, and his nose became sour. She tilted her head and didn''t want Gu Beichen to see her vulnerability After psychological construction, Shen Chucai gritted his teeth and said, "because I''m suitable, I deserve it!" She nodded and said, with more and more sarcasm on her face, "Gu Beichen, I thank you..." she looked at Gu Beichen with gnashing teeth, "is that ok?" Then he turned around. Shen Chu opened the door and got on the car. Sharp reversing, a crazy wagging tail... The bright red car left quickly. J shook his head. "Hey, I think you''re so attracted to women, and Jane Mo has too many rival lovers." Gu Beichen glanced at J, then withdrew and turned on the car. "Say..." J asked curiously after getting on the bus, "why don''t you explain why Shen Chu is angry?" "It''s better to have a fire in your heart than to hold it." Gu Beichen started the car indifferently, "Shen Chu, it''s easy to get out of anger..." "You''re just like Qin Shao," J said. "They both like to calculate people''s hearts." Gu Beichen looked at J. when the car turned out of the underground parking lot, there was a congealing redrawing on his cold face He calculated people''s hearts, but those who wanted to "calculate" most had no way. Is it powerless or something?! The thin lips faintly scratched a self mockery. Gu Beichen drove silently all the way back to the villa in the middle of the mountain. "Daddy..." Jane Jie shouted cleverly. Gu Beichen looked at the kitchen. "Is Mommy in the kitchen?" Jian Jie shook his head. "Mommy just made dumplings and was called away by a phone..." he fanned his eyelashes. "Mommy said she asked grandma Luo to have a rest, so you come back and have dumplings." "Good!" Gu Beichen rubbed Jian Jie''s head, took off his suit, washed his hands and went to the kitchen to make dumplings. ¡­¡­ Wangjiang tower. When Jane Mo arrived, she saw Shen chulin sitting at the window, holding his cheek and looking at the Los Angeles River outside the window. "Come here..." Shen Chu said, and then said to the waiter, "serve." "OK!" Jane Mo sat down opposite. "What''s the matter?" She saw that Shen Chu''s face was a little bad. Shen Chu took the teapot and poured water for Jian Mo, "do you know that Beichen set a trap with shares?" Then she handed the water cup to Jian Mo and raised her eyes slightly. Her eyes looked at Jian Mo tightly. "I didn''t know at first, but later I thought of..." Jane Mo opened her mouth lightly, didn''t avoid it, and didn''t intend to modify it. Shen Chu sneered, took the cup and drank water. "What happened?" Asked Jane mo. Shen Chu said everything about this afternoon, and then sneered, "Jane Mo, do you think my life is very sad?" Jane Mo lowered her eyes and was silent. She just sighed and said, "Shen Chu, not many people''s life is plain sailing..." she raised her eyes. "Ah Chen is wrong about this matter, but in his position, it''s not wrong." Shen Chu tilted his head and covered his eyes with sour and astringent, "I know." She smiled at the corner of her mouth, "in fact, he has not hurt me as much as possible." When the emperor left, she actually figured it out But it''s one thing to figure it out and another to feel sad. "Jian Mo, sometimes I really envy you..." Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo, "our life is not smooth, but at least you have Gu Beichen around you. What about me?!" Jian Mo reached forward and held Shen Chu''s hand. "What belongs to you... Will appear one day." ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen took two pots of dumplings according to his taste. Looking at the dumplings rolling in the water, he leaned against the glass platform, and his sight gradually became deep At the right time, the mobile phone vibrated, interrupting his wandering thoughts. Take it out, look at the call, pick it up and put it in your ear. "Chen Shao," came Xiao Jing''s slightly dignified voice on the phone, "second uncle seems to be back!" Chapter 830 Gu Beichen suddenly became dark and deep. "Are you sure?" "Not sure!" Xiao Jing looked at the Dragon owl. "I''m here, brother owl. I just got the news." Gu Beichen was silent. "Well," he said, "when Xiaojie has eaten, I''ll go." "OK." Xiao Jing hung up the phone and looked at the Dragon owl with a dignified look. "Brother owl, Gu muhuai can''t turn out any big storms now?" "Who knows?" The Dragon owl answered faintly. Xiao Jing tilted his lips, and his eyes inadvertently crossed the room with the door closed. The Dragon owl was making dinner by himself. When he saw Xiao Jing''s eyes, he said softly, "I''ll go back to the beach tomorrow. If you''re all right, go and see Xiao Nan." Xiao Jing looked back. "I don''t want to see it..." he shrugged. "Every time I get hurt, I''m most afraid I''ll see it." The Dragon owl put a dinner in front of Xiao Jing, "you decide." Then he wiped his hand. "You can go after eating." "Chen Shao will come later," said Xiao Jing without interest. "I''ll wait for him." The Dragon owl frowned slightly and invisibly, "are you curious about warmth?" There was a dangerous smell in the light voice. Xiao Jing swallowed secretly and wanted to compromise, but he was really curious Although he hasn''t seen it before, the relationship is different now. He just wants to see if he has confirmed the relationship with brother Xiao. The Dragon owl saw Xiao Jing struggling and ignored him. He just went to pour the red wine, went to the window and looked at the night view of Los Angeles. Xiao Jing''s meal was called a depression. To Gu Beichen, he was also the Lord and friend, and to the Dragon Owl... He was a potential awe. "Well... I think I''d better go first." Xiao Jing didn''t finish his meal, so he left without backbone. After going out, he grinned secretly... He showed great contempt for his behavior. When he got into the car, Xiao Jinggang was just about to start the car and suddenly stopped. Took the cell phone and called Xiao Nan, "sister, let me go and see you?" "Get out!" Xiao Nan''s indifferent voice came. Xiao Jing said, "I won''t laugh at you..." "Because you know," Xiao Nan said coldly, "even if I get hurt, you can''t beat me anyway." Xiao Jing now has a thick skin and doesn''t mind, "I''m a high-end elite who won''t do very rude things, okay?" "Why don''t you say that you can only count people who are corrupt in front of Chen Shao?" "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corner of his mouth and said with his teeth, "OK, you won!" The words fell and didn''t give Xiao Nan a chance to speak. He hung up the phone directly. "Mom, I just make complaints about myself..." Xiao Jing Tucao sentence, started the car and left Devilskiss. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao was a little tired, lying on the sofa in Ye Chenyu''s private detective agency and rubbed his eyebrows "If there is no breakthrough," Ye Chenyu handed him a glass of water, "it is basically certain that your grandmother really caused the accident that year." Chu Zixiao drank some water and said decadent, "if you get the account book, it''s still the result..." he paused, "then don''t check it." It''s better to be so unclear than to know the truth It''s good that Momo and Beichen are together like this. Ye Chenyu looked at Chu Zixiao''s irritable appearance and said with a smile, "you''re a criminal debate. It''s really good for you not to pursue the truth?" ¡°P£¡¡± Chu Zixiao burst out directly, "I''m a criminal defense, not a policeman... What does the truth have to do with me?" "Since it doesn''t matter, what do you check?" "..." Chu Zixiao almost choked on Ye Chenyu''s words. Seeing that Chu Zixiao stopped talking, ye Chenyu sat in a chair, put his legs on the tea table and said, "this thing is like a lump in the throat. No matter what the result is, we''ll talk about it in the end. Now worry about a ghost..." Chu Zixiao closed his astringent eyes, "I understand what you said." "However, I was afraid that I would destroy the happiness of Gu Beichen and Jian mo." Ye Chenyu hit the nail on the head, "for fear of being said, you can''t let Jane foam go. It''s intentional." Chu Zixiao opened his eyes, "can''t you speak more politely?" "Ghost!" Ye Chenyu sneered, "Chu Zixiao, don''t let go, you know... I hope you don''t want Jian Mo to be happy, you know." "I hope she is happy..." after a while, Chu Zixiao began quietly, "but do you know what the most painful ending of the two people is?" Ye Chenyu shrugged and said he didn''t know. Chu Zixiao looked at him, and his voice was quiet for a few minutes, "that is... People are gone, but their feelings are still there!" Ye Chenyu frowned. He couldn''t understand Chu Zixiao''s deep feelings, but when he said this, he was a bystander and felt sad. ¡­¡­ At night, because the new year is coming, I can sometimes hear the sound of children playing with firecrackers. Jian Mo watched Shen Chu sweep away so many dishes on the table and frowned, "you''re spending your own money and can''t get along with your stomach..." "Who said I spent my own money?" Shen Chu took a sip of soup. "Your man cheated me and used me. Shouldn''t you pay me for a meal and comfort me?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "But you''re in a hurry. I forgot to take my wallet when I went out." "..." Shen Chu listened, his face stiffened, then gritted his teeth and said, "Jane Mo, do you think I should be angry or moved?" "Moved!" Shen Chu sneered, "OK... For me to come and forget to take my wallet, I really should be moved." Paused, "I''ll pay the bill later and remember to pay me back tomorrow." Jane Mo smiled, "Shen Chu, how good are you?" "Huh?" Shen Chu has taken a lobster and started peeling it. Jane Mo held her cheek. "In fact, people live to be used by others, but there are good and bad... Whether it''s the purpose or the result." "Well, don''t give me chicken soup." Shen Chu rolled his eyes. "Take care of yourself first." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Shen Chu dipped the shrimp in the sauce and stuffed it into his mouth. He didn''t have the usual arrogant etiquette. "You first cook chicken soup for yourself several times..." Shen Chu wiped his hand. "Jian Mo, I thank you very much, from the enemy to..." She paused and asked, "are we friends now?" "What do you say?" Asked Jane mo. "Forget it..." Shen Chu was a little perfunctory. "You have given me a lot of feelings from our enemies to our friends. Otherwise, I must hold back today''s affairs in my heart and then walk into a dead end." After drinking, Shen Chu continued, "but you are the one who affects me, but you have imprisoned yourself." Jane Mo was silent. She thought she had been pretending well. However, from the new year''s day to today, Shen Chu always exposed her at a glance. "Just tell me," Shen Chu asked seriously, "do you think so long as Xiao Jie is not with you?" Chapter 831 Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu and felt a sudden shock. Subconsciously, she wanted to refute. "You don''t have to answer me in a hurry," Shen Chu continued to peel the shrimp. "Is it right? You know..." he paused. "It''s the new year in two days. After the new year, I think you really need to see a psychologist." Jane Mo swallowed what she wanted to refute, and drooped her shoulders bitterly. "Shen Chu, I''m sometimes very anxious when I''m out of control..." Jane Mo droops her eyes and rarely reveals her vulnerability. "I don''t know what to do. As long as he''s not here and I''m alone, I can''t control it." "Normal." Shen Chu said somewhat heartlessly, "it''s your child anyway. He''s still so old... If you don''t care at all, there''s a problem." Jane Mo was silent and frowned. "I don''t want him to worry." "How possible?" Shen chuyang finished his words and then smiled sarcastically, "Jian Mo, seriously, I really envy and envy you..." Jian Mo looks at Shen Chu. "Beichen used to be a sunny person, but I didn''t have much contact with her at that time..." "It''s a secret that Chu Er has been kidnapped to go to school. Later, he said," it''s not a secret that he should go to school with him. " For this cause and effect, Jane Mo doesn''t need others to say now Although she didn''t see the picture, she could hardly imagine how ah Chen persisted at that time. "Such a cold person, I thought I could make him love me..." Shen Chu laughed at himself. "Obviously, our past is a joke." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth. If she wasn''t in a bad mood, she really wanted to ask Shen Chu They have such a strange relationship. Is it really good to talk about this?! "But Beichen is different from you..." Shen Chu sighed. "I think that man is too cruel. He will subvert the whole world for you!" Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu with some infatuation "Really, especially after today''s events." Shen Chu sneered, "I was used by him, but now I come to you to have dinner with me. Seriously, Jian Mo, I really failed." Arrogant for so long, I really don''t even have a friend who talks and loses his temper Li Jinxi is a. Unfortunately, she was in poor health after miscarriage, and she didn''t want her own affairs to make her sad. Jane Mo is the only rival left! "You said you didn''t want Gu Beichen to worry. Do you think it''s possible?" Shen Chu suddenly had no mood to eat. "So, since you have decided to see a psychologist, you should first accept it in your heart... If it takes a long time, even if Beichen is cheated by you now, you will still see your problem sooner or later." Jane Mo drooped her eyes again with a heavy heart. "You say, will he be more guilty then? Or more guilty..." Jian Mo was speechless. "I will try to adjust myself recently. After the new year, you have arranged the time." "Good!" Shen Chu said, looking at the time, "OK, it''s not early. I''ve been occupying it for a long time. If Gu Beichen finds another thing to use me, I''m afraid I''ll go crazy and stab him!" At last, Shen Chu was gnashing his teeth. But Wang Xingren who can scream often just vent, and those who can''t scream are terrible Shen Chu found out. The biggest change between her now and before is that she can scream! Shen Chu asked someone to settle the bill. He just sat down and didn''t feel it. But when he came together, he found that he had a problem eating until he walked. Jane Mo held her. They disliked each other and walked outside the restaurant From beginning to end, the two women did not find that the man at the next table with his back to them listened very carefully to their conversation. The man slowly tilted his head and looked at the back of Shen Chu and Jian Mo leaving. The corners of his mouth gradually drew a gloomy smile That kind of smile is uncomfortable and treacherous. ¡­¡­ After Gu Beichen arrived at devilskiss, he called Jian Mo, "are you still eating?" "Just went downstairs, ready to go back..." Jane Mo replied. "Come to devilskiss, I''m here." Jian Mo and Shen Chu waved and got on the bus, "well, good..." After Jane Mo hung up the phone, she started the car and went to devilskiss. The memory of devilskiss entering for the first time is still vivid. Jane Mo never thought that it was the territory of the Dragon Owl Now when I think of those things, I''m not afraid, but laugh it off. Jane Mo suddenly thought of Jane Heng. Although she hated her, it was her brother... There was no news for so long. She just wanted him to recognize the past and be a man from scratch. Although, she knows that such an idea is somewhat extravagant. After arriving at devilskiss, Jane Mo walked straight through the lobby and went upstairs "Eh, brother Hao, isn''t that Jane Mo?" Shen Hao drank beer casually, looked at Jian Mo''s back and took it back indifferently, "who is she and what''s my relationship?" The younger brother grinned. "When I see her here, I can always think of her coming here to find brother Hao five years ago." "You remember so clearly... Why don''t you go and talk to Gu Beichen?" Shen Hao sneered. As soon as I heard this, I felt my nose uninteresting. Shen Hao looked at his younger brother and looked at Jian Mo involuntarily A few days ago, he just heard the news that Jian Heng was dead... It was the hand of the Dragon owl. Although I don''t know whether it''s true or not, if it''s true That''s interesting, too. Shen Hao took back his sight, drank up a beer in one breath and opened another bottle. The Chen family fell down, and Jian Heng died. It seems that Mo palace only shipped goods recently, and there was no big trouble... Then Gu Beichen disclosed Jian Jie''s identity. It seems that these things are not related, but how can he feel that there is any connection?! "Brother Hao, what do you think?" The younger brother asked curiously when he saw that Shen Hao had been silent. Shen Hao glanced at him, "play by yourself..." paused. He looked at the time, "hasn''t Shanzi come yet?" "Brother Hao, I just called. Shanzi said he would be there in a minute." Said the other. "Yes!" Shen Hao answered and started drinking on his own. It took about half an hour for Shanzi to arrive. "Why so long?" Shen Hao frowned. "After a while, I just answered a boss''s phone at the door..." Shanzi said, his face obviously dignified. Shen Hao and Shanzi have been partners for a long time. They are both literate and martial arts. They are also famous Golden partners in the road. Seeing Shanzi''s look, Shen Hao felt something, "go out and say." As he spoke, he got up and went out... Shanzi told his younger brothers to stay and followed Shen Hao closely. "Is there something wrong?" After Shen Hao went out, a cold wind woke him up a lot. While talking, he took a cigarette and lit it. Shanzi''s face became heavier, "someone opened a red flower..." "Buy whose life?" Shen Hao asked indifferently. Shanzi looked at Shen Hao and said solemnly, "Gu Yan!" Chapter 832 "Who?" Shen Haoning''s eyes. Shanzi''s voice was more heavy, "Gu Yan..." he sighed, "it''s Jian Jie!" "Nonsense," Shen Hao was a little annoyed, "of course I know Gu Yan is Jian Jie." Shanzi sighed, "the red flowers are very big... Nine digits!" "Shit, who can''t get along with a child?" Shen Hao spit. "One hundred million is enough to attract many killers..." Shanzi took out his mobile phone from his pocket and called out the text message sent to him by the boss of Hongxing society. "The boss looked very interested." "I''m afraid even if I get the money, I can''t eat it!" Shen Hao threw away the cigarette and put it out with his feet. "Who''s Gu Beichen? Who''s the Dragon owl? Do you think the money is delicious?!" Shanzi was silent. Of course he knew it was hard to take the money. However, nine figures... If it''s not easy to take, it can make people crazy. After all, with this, many people can stop and live a stable life Even if, may not be able to secure. Shen Hao lit another cigarette. Of course, he knew what Shanzi was thinking. They who lick blood on the edge of the knife say they like it all their life. They''re all fucking lying to ghosts! After taking a hard smoke, Shen Haocai said in a deep voice, "I''ll tell the boss that Hongxing society is not like this muddy water." "OK..." Shanzi answered, but still worried, "now I''m afraid the safflower will be overweight." Shen Hao spits out the smoke ring. There are rules on the road. Even if they don''t participate, they can''t hinder others'' money The entrance of devil \''s kiss is a little dark, but upstairs is obviously much more relaxed and peaceful. When Jian Mo arrived, Gu Beichen and long Xiao had just finished talking. "Would you like something to eat?" Gu Beichen looked at the Dragon owl and said, "let brother do it for you, huh?" Long Xiao heard Gu Beichen learn from Jian Mo and called him "big brother". His eyes were deep and his eyes fell on Jian mo. As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she suddenly felt that her stomach was a little propped up and shook her head. "Shen Chu asked for a table of dishes and ate well..." she said, and she sat down next to Gu Beichen. The Dragon owl took the juice and poured a cup for Jian mo. he heard Jian Mo say, "I forgot to bring my wallet in the past and owed Shen Chu more than 800..." "Eat so much?" Gu Beichen slightly raised his eyebrows, "two people?!" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen innocently. "Women need to vent. Often they can solve it with food. That''s not a big problem..." paused, "just laugh!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep, and his thin lips raised a slightly evil smile, "HMM." "You remember to pay back..." Jane Mo drank the juice. "Hmm..." Gu Beichen answered softly, with an obvious smile in his voice. The Dragon owl glanced at Gu Beichen with a deep vision and opened the topic, "I''ll go back to the beach with warmth tomorrow..." "Well, let''s go on the second day of junior high school." Gu Beichen said. Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously, "are you going to the beach for the new year?" "Promised J to take him to the amusement park," Gu Beichen said faintly. "Thinking that we didn''t take Xiaojie to the amusement park together, we just went there." To the seashore, Jane Mo subconsciously resisted, not because of memory, but because of memory But she didn''t know when it was. As Shen Chu said, she may really have to see a psychologist now. What''s the matter As long as she thinks of Shi Shaoqin, she can''t stop herself from thinking about the night she lost Xiao Yan. Jian Mo felt Gu Beichen''s deep frozen vision and hurriedly picked up the juice and drank it in an attempt to cover up her mood. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil became deeper and deeper, but when Jian Mo looked over, he had recovered the deep condensation under calm. Jane Mo Xu is "guilty of being a thief". She wants to find a topic to turn off, but suddenly she doesn''t know what to say At the right time, the bedroom door rang. Three people looked at it at the same time... And they came out with warm sleepy eyes. Warm, I didn''t expect someone outside. I looked at Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, but I wasn''t too embarrassed. I just said hello with a smile "Hungry?" The Dragon owl had already walked past, and regardless of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, he gently trimmed his messy hair for warmth. "I left her face a little warm......" Then, regardless of the Dragon owl, he turned around and entered the bedroom again. The atmosphere suddenly became a little awkward. Jian Mo looks at the Dragon owl and Gu Beichen. "It''s getting late. Jane and I went back first..." Gu Beichen got off the high chair. Jian Mo also calmly got off the chair, nodded with the Dragon owl with a smile, said hello, and left with Gu Beichen. When she left, Jane Mo''s car was left here. She took Gu Beichen''s and went back to the villa in the middle of the mountain. "Big brother and warmth feel strange..." Jane Mo lay back on the car seat and looked at the neon outside. Gu Beichen looked at her, "only the parties know what they want about the two people..." Jian Mo looked back at Gu Beichen, looked at his cold but soft side face, and said slowly, "well, especially feelings." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with thin lips, and then the smile spread in the fundus of his eyes "Boss Long loves warmth." Gu Beichen spoke softly. "Warmth doesn''t love big brother?" Jane Mo frowned slightly. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo again, "I don''t know..." "..." Jane Mo left her mouth. "In the past, it was just a few of us chatting," Gu Beichen said. "In those years, boss long only went to the beach occasionally." Gu Beichen turned the car to the road to the villa, "before you came back, boss long basically lived on the beach..." "Chasing warmth?!" "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered, but then frowned, "chasing... Seems to be inappropriate." "Strong?" Jane Mo stared suspiciously. "..." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, and she clearly wrote in her eyes what this "strong" means. "Not exactly." Gu Beichen shook his head. I still remember that before Jane Mo came back, he had something to go to the beach. That was the first time he really saw warmth Never a woman... Dare to kiss a dragon owl! Thinking of the scene that day, Gu Beichen couldn''t help smiling. Boss long put the bait and lured him to take the bait Not strong, not chasing, well, it''s a trick! The car turned into the villa. Gu Beichen just parked the car in the parking space, and his mobile phone rang. Jane Mo has opened the door and looks back at Gu Beichen Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone and saw that it was the Dragon owl. He frowned slightly... I don''t know how he called just after he separated. "You go wash first, huh?" Gu Beichen looks at Jian mo. Jian Mo subconsciously looked at Gu Beichen''s shaking mobile phone, nodded and got out of the car. Gu Beichen answered the phone, but looked at Jian Mo, "what else?" "Just received the news," came the low voice of the Dragon owl. "Someone opened nine figures in the red flower list and bought Xiaojie''s life!" Chapter 833 Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes immediately narrowed, and the two cold lights were like cold sharp blades, as if they had shot through the windshield. "Do you know who it is?" Gu Beichen''s voice was obviously a little heavy. The Dragon owl was silent for two seconds. "The safflower list only buys life. No one knows who the seller is." Of course Gu Beichen knows. After all, he came out of Mo palace and spent a lot of time on the streets of London. Gu Beichen closed his eyes and tried to calm himself down. Shi Shaoqin is impossible now. The hidden dangers that should be eliminated have been eliminated To say who else is there, there is only Gu mohuai who doesn''t know the time to escape from commercial crime. However, now he doesn''t say nine figures, but seven figures are afraid he can''t get them out. "I''ll ask Xiao Qiang to arrange people secretly," said the Dragon owl. "Be careful yourself." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and opened his eyes. The Dragon owl paused and asked, "is the beach still coming?" "Go..." Gu Beichen also said in silence, "Jane Mo has been under great pressure recently. I''m afraid she knows something and will..." Gu Beichen didn''t continue to say the following words, and the Dragon owl already understood. In fact, Gu Beichen had already talked with the Dragon owl at that time. Although Jian Mo didn''t say it, it doesn''t mean he didn''t find Mo''er wrong He consulted Yunze and said it could be depression. Xiao Yan''s departure was a great blow to Mo''er Gu Beichen rubbed his forehead. "How many people can the playground arrange?" "Monitor all!" The Dragon owl opened his mouth faintly, but showed a look of arrogance. Gu Beichen doesn''t doubt that the amusement park over there is owned by the Dragon empire. Although the Dragon owl hasn''t really decided to return to the dragon''s house yet, it''s not impossible to comprehensively monitor and protect the amusement park. "I''ll arrange others..." Gu Beichen said, opening the door and getting out of the car, "first." "Yes." The Dragon owl answered and hung up. Gu Beichen didn''t walk to the villa yet. He paused, took his mobile phone, hung his eyes and broadcast a group of numbers Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the hospital window with his hands in his pockets. He looked at the sunlight transmitting the light of the building glass and narrowed his narrow eyes slightly. The mobile phone kept shaking on the tea table. After a while, he narrowed his eyes and turned to get it Looking at the caller ID, Shi Shaoqin''s eyes deepened and calmly picked it up. "Someone offered a reward for Xiaojie''s life..." Gu Beichen spoke directly. Shi Shaoqin raised his eyes indifferently, "it''s not me." "I know." Shi Shaoqin raised his mouth coldly, "then?" "You owe me a life..." Gu Beichen turned around with one hand and his eyes fell in front. Under the night light, there was a heavy and violent breath. Shi Shaoqin sneered, "Beichen, if you ask for someone, you have to ask for someone." After a pause, he said coldly, "also, in this world... Only the life I want and don''t want, but there''s no life I owe!" When the words fell, Shi Shaoqin hung up without giving Gu Beichen a chance to speak. Gu Beichen didn''t continue to fight, but Shi Shaoqin''s deep and bottomless eyes were full of evil that people couldn''t understand. "Dong Dong!" The knock on the door interrupted Shi Shaoqin''s thoughts. He answered indifferently and someone pushed the door open. "Qin Shao, the inspection is over..." After listening, Shi Shaoqin took his mobile phone into his pocket, and the man walked out in time. Xi Cheng has started to inject Xiaoyan with drugs. He hasn''t seen a significant improvement, but he hasn''t deteriorated any more. Meno began to doubt it. In recent days, he also began to actively cooperate with Xi Cheng. Looking at the little guy who is still in the incubator, it seems that there is no specimen of life. "The first phase of the drug has been injected," Xi Cheng shrugged. "No antibody reaction has been found for the time being. After the end of the year, the second phase should be carried out." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered indifferently, so that people could not hear his mood. Xi Cheng left his mouth and didn''t say anything. He went out of the insulation room. Looking at Xiao Yan in the incubator, Shi Shaoqin''s mind echoed Gu Beichen''s words With his eyes slightly narrowed, Shi Shaoqin took his mobile phone and entered the unique system interface Sure enough, Gu Yan is now the first name on the safflower list! Gu Yan is the name of the little thing in front of him. Jian Jie uses this name. It is estimated that it is for the love with Xiao Yan and hopes to give it to Jian mo. But now Shi Shaoqin saw the name hanging on the red flower list, but he felt particularly dazzling The long and narrow eyes moved slightly. After Shi Shaoqin withdrew from the interface, he dialed the phone. "The words went on," said Shi Shaoqin in a cold voice. "Gu Yan''s life is mine. If anyone wants to... Come to Mo palace!" The person on the other side of the phone listened and didn''t respond for a long time. "Didn''t you hear?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was obviously deeper. "Yes!" Hearing the sound inside, Shi Shaoqin coldly hung up the phone Looking at Xiao Yan in the incubator, Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "I want to save you... Who dares to move?" In the light voice, there was cold hostility. It seems that Shi Shaoqin seems to regard Gu Yan on the safflower list as Xiao Yan in the incubator ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen didn''t expect Shi Shaoqin to do anything. In this way, he just wanted to help his power. Even if he couldn''t know who bought his life, at least if he thought about Xiao Yan''s departure, he felt guilty and gave Xiao Jie more protection. In the dark world, it''s best for Shi Shaoqin to intervene After all, the Mo palace manipulated the interests of too many people because of the sale of drugs and arms. Gu Beichen went upstairs and went back to his bedroom. He just opened the bedroom door. His eyebrows could not help but frown. Just listen to the sound of retching in the bathroom. Gu Beichen subconsciously looked at the bathroom, and the sound inside turned into the sound of toilet water The position of the heart seemed to be gouged out by something, and the pain filled the depths of the ink pupil. "What are the symptoms of depression?" Gu Beichen asked Li Yunze. "It''s common to feel depressed, anxious when you''re alone, and always think about something negative..." Li Yunze said. "If you''ve been depressed for a long time, the most intuitive thing in your body will produce dizziness and vomiting." Gu Beichen''s thin lips have become a straight line. "It''s better to let Jian Mo go out to work. If someone is around and busy, there will be no time for wishful thinking..." Li Yunze suggested. This is why the temperature is still low, but when Jian Mo proposed to go back to Xiangyu to work, he agreed. Obviously, going out to work did not reduce Mo''er''s emotional pressure. Gu Beichen closed the bedroom door again and went downstairs. Mo''er doesn''t want him to know. Now he can only pretend not to know Yunze said that in addition to Xiao Yan''s departure, he is now also the source of Jian Mo''s pressure. Gu Beichen was obviously anxious between his eyebrows and eyes. Xiao Yan had an accident. He was unable to do anything. He can''t let Xiaojie have another accident... He can''t stand it, let alone Mo''er?! A touch of self mockery crossed the corner of his mouth. Gu Beichen took out his mobile phone and opened the SMS interface. At the same time, he had an unprecedented sense of self-confidence in his eyes However, the bottom of my eyes has no power or incompetence, but I just want Jian Jie to be safe and firm. Shaoqin, I want Xiaojie to be safe. I want you to drive! Chapter 834 Shi Shaoqin just came out of the hospital. His mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. He ignored it. As time went on, the sunshine outside was obviously a little warm. He frowned slightly and got into the car Slender as jade''s finger just wanted to press the button to start the engine. Suddenly, he paused and took out his mobile phone. Looking at Gu Beichen''s text message, Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, and one side of his mouth scratched a smile... Then he dialed the phone. Gu Beichen leaned against the pillar at the door and was a little lazy. Glancing at the call, he answered, "how about it?" There was a trace of evil in the indifferent voice, with an unspeakable sense of depression. "Conditions I open?" The voice of Shi Shaoqin''s light Yi came, which was obviously sneered at. Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned, and there was a sound of "um" in his throat. "OK..." Shi Shaoqin looked through the windshield and landed on a tree in front of him. "I''ll protect him and let Jian Mo come back to me!" "..." Gu Beichen suddenly looked at the eagle with a cold eye, and then the cold and indisputable voice spilled over his thin lips, "you can roll..." He didn''t even give Shi Shaoqin a chance to speak, so he hung up the phone. The cold, carved face is obviously covered with haze, and the lines are even tighter. Gu Beichen is angry If Shi Shaoqin were in front of him now, he would give him a punch. Put the mobile phone in his pocket and get up immediately... Gu Beichen stepped into the villa with a calm and steady step. Xiao Jie, he won''t be hurt, Mo''er... He can''t give it to anyone! I''m looking for Shi Shaoqin, but I hope it can be solved as soon as possible. I don''t want to delay After all, the power of Mo palace, if Shi Shaoqin wants to protect a person, those killers still have to weigh whether they can do it or not. No one really wants to fight against Mo palace, because everyone knows... The owner of Mo palace is a pervert. ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin listened to the "dududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududu At the same time, the light of the eyes is also deep and can''t see to the end. Lying back slowly on the car seat, Shi Shaoqin kept looking at the front I don''t know how long it took until the sun gradually moved and refracted on the car glass. When it was dazzling, he narrowed his sight slightly. Beichen, I really owe you a life! A life of Xiao Yan But I''m saving! What shall I do? Shi Shaoqin tilted his head and narrowed his narrow eyes slightly. Two pure lights crossed the direction of the hospital deeply If I saved Jane Jie''s life, I''ll pay it back Shi Shaoqin''s sight had narrowed into a line. When he felt that he was about to close, he opened it. He took back his sight, took out his mobile phone and dialed the number. As soon as he got through there, he listened to his lingran say, "let''s talk. I want to take care of Yan''s absolute safety..." After a pause, when his eyes were gradually deep and couldn''t see to the end, his voice was cold, "at... Any cost!" "Yes, Qin Shao!" Shi Shaoqin hung up the phone, threw his mobile phone aside at random, started the car and left the hospital Gu Beichen, Xiao Yan''s life has been returned to you. Condition I open Mo palace never trades at a loss! ¡­¡­ When Gu Beichen returned to the bedroom, Jane Mo had washed out. He stood at the door of the bedroom, with eagle eyes looking at Jane Mo wiping her hair on the dressing table Stepping forward, Gu Beichen skillfully took over the big towel, wiped the water vapor for Jane Mo first, and took the hair dryer to blow it to her. His movements are very gentle, so gentle that Jian Mo''s heart begins to feel uneasy "What''s the matter, huh?" Gu Beichen said softly. Jian Mo looked up at Gu Beichen''s line of sight from the makeup mirror, his lips moved and wanted to say something, but at last he just shook his head with a smile. "I was thinking, how can I meet such a good husband as you?" Jane Mo laughed. "You can earn money when you go out and serve your wife when you go home." "I guess you did a great good thing in your last life..." Gu Beichen said solemnly. Jane Mo nodded seriously, "well, I think so." Gu Beichen''s hand moved back and forth with Jane Mo''s nod, deeply afraid of pulling her hair, "be honest!" Jane Mo was obedient and didn''t move, "ah Chen..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered with a low voice. "Ah Chen..." "Yes!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± One shouted and the other responded... Several times, Jian Mo didn''t find anything, and Gu Beichen didn''t get angry. She shouted, he should... Always feel that this is also a kind of fun. I was blowing my hair, but I don''t know what happened to such interest. The two kissed together. Holding Jane Mo to bed, Gu Beichen kissed her carefully and said, "go to the company tomorrow and deal with some things years ago, and it''ll be all right." "Hmm..." Jian Mo was moved by Gu Beichen. I don''t know whether it was Gu Beichen''s words or the palpitation of her body. Gu Beichen''s long held body can react as long as he is stained with Jian Mo, but considering her body, he always endured Bear it, naturally there are times when you can''t help it. Like now Jane felt a little uncomfortable, and he felt it himself. "It should be ok..." Jian Mo rubbed Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes and wanted to relieve each other regardless of their possession. However, the temporary comfort, what if it causes a burden on her body?! "I haven''t taken a bath yet..." Gu Beichen said, gritting his teeth. Jane Mo has been drunk and blurred, and her eyes exude an undisguised love bath, "it''s all right, I don''t dislike you..." "...." Gu Beichen swallowed, and the Adam''s apple rolled obviously because of this swallowing. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen''s voice was hoarse, and Mo Tong was deeply coagulated with Jian mo. after a long time, I heard him bite his teeth and say, "forget it, I''d better take a bath!" Then he turned over and got out of bed But he walks strangely. Jian Mo was suddenly awakened by the heat. She was immediately angry. Looking at Gu Beichen''s strange walking posture, she shouted: "Gu Beichen, are you full outside... Or are you not now Gu Beichen stopped, but didn''t turn around. Jane Mo also had depression in her eyes, so she stared at his suddenly stiff back. The atmosphere is suddenly dignified under some embarrassment. This man has needs, and so do women Besides, Jian Mo was depressed and was temporarily forgotten by Gu Beichen, but he left when she was all ready! Gu Beichen bared his teeth and turned back. Mo Tong looked at Jian Mo dangerously, "what do you mean I''m full outside?" "Also," Gu Beichen''s sight became more and more dangerous, "what do you mean I can''t?" "OK, you still go?" Jane Mo blurted out subconsciously. The bedroom was filled with a strange smell Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly and burst out a dangerous light, shooting at Jian Mo! Chapter 835 Jian Mo seemed to swallow her eyes with Gu Beichen''s deep, and her heart was'' cluttered '' Isn''t she angry?! Gu Beichen knows better than anyone whether she will steal food outside. As for whether she can, she should be the most experienced?! She swallowed involuntarily. The heat on Jian Mo''s face just stirred by Gu Beichen had not subsided, and muttered, "I can..." She is a person who has given birth to a child. She knows when she can be together. But she also knew that Gu Beichen was worried about her body Gu Beichen''s body is really uncomfortable. Before, Jian Mo couldn''t be together in the later stage of pregnancy. In addition, so many things have happened How can he bear to see her now?! In fact, he also knows that Jane Mo is almost OK now But he was afraid of the impact of his greed on her body. Gu Beichen was a little regretful. He just couldn''t help it. He just knew that she was depressed, but he pretended not to know... He felt uncomfortable and couldn''t control it. Jian Mo saw that Gu Beichen clearly wanted to eat her in his eyes, but he didn''t act and was a little angry. "You feel like I have to..." Jane Mo lay down angrily and grabbed the quilt to cover it. Unfortunately, Gu Beichen tore it off without covering it Both of them miss each other, and there are things hidden in their hearts. Now... They just want to feel each other hard. However, Gu Beichen called Li Yunze at the last minute to confirm Li Yunze is confronting he Yining. The phone comes. Hearing Gu Beichen ask this, he immediately scolds: "labor and capital are not gynecologists!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Just when he wanted to speak, he heard Li Yunze''s words "He Yining," Li Yunze looked at he Yining opposite, "Gu Beichen is on the line now and asked if you can..." "..." he Yining immediately blushed. She''s doing gynecological research now, but why doesn''t she know that this man speaks so obscene?! She knows about Jane mo. she met her once a few days ago and talked... She knows something about her recent situation. Li Yunze looked at he Yining with leisure. Seeing that she was angry and ashamed, he asked, "hurry up, we can''t wait for a while..." "Yes." Why Ning''s face became redder and bit his teeth, "but be moderate..." Li Yunze looked at he Yining all the time, and said to Gu Beichen with some strange emphasis in his voice: "he Yining said, you can do... But be restrained." "Li Yunze, why are you doing this..." There was a roar on the phone, but after half talking, Li Yunze cut off the phone. Gu Beichen threw his mobile phone aside. At this moment, he didn''t care about Li Yunze and he Yining. Jane can''t bear to have anything with each other now But in an instant, a beautiful scene lit up in the bedroom. Unfortunately, in the end, Gu Beichen found that he was digging a hole to jump for himself I just endured it. Now I have tasted the joy, and I don''t want to feel the difference. Jane Mo smiled, laughing, and her eyes were covered with a touch of sadness. "Ah Chen..." "Yes!" Jane murmured her lower lip, "I..." she said a word and paused, "it''s all right!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and hugged Jane Mo more tightly, "Mo''er, don''t think about anything. I... huh?" Light Yi''s voice was full of doting. Jian Mo arched in Gu Beichen''s arms and gently answered, "Hmm!" Gu Beichen kissed on Jian Mo''s head, "sleep!" The night became more lively before the new year. But the excitement has nothing to do with the quiet villa The next day, the weather was a little overcast, and the sun became cold. Su Jun came early in the morning and cooked the soup for Jian Mo, and some new year things Su Zhenqi bought for Jian Jie. "Where''s Xiao Jie?" When Su Jun came in, he just met Gu Beichen and drove away. "He Chen went out less?" "No," Jian Mo handed the water to Su Junli. "I was texting when I just had breakfast. After eating, I went back to my bedroom mysteriously..." Su Junli smiled, "have you started to have secrets since you were so young?" Jane Mo was stunned at first, and then understood the hidden meaning of Su Junli. She couldn''t help laughing, "that could be one by one." 11. Who is it? Su Junli knows. He just thinks it''s Jian Jie''s classmate. He likes to play together But one by one is Li Yunze''s daughter. He doesn''t know. "Mom asked me to ask you if you have anything in the afternoon..." "What''s the matter?" Asked Jane mo. "Say my son is not considerate, pull you..." Su Junli is a little helpless, "pull your daughter to go shopping." Accept Jian Mo as a dry daughter. Of course, Su Junli knows what they mean But they saw that he was reading Jian Mo all day and reminded them from time to time that they were brothers and sisters now, and he had nothing to say. "OK, I''m fine anyway..." Jane nodded. It''s Chinese new year, and Xiangyu doesn''t have any projects for her. Anyway, she''s idle. Instead of thinking nonsense, she might as well go shopping with her mother. Below, Su Junli chatted with Jian mo. Upstairs, Jian Jie held his mobile phone and looked at the words sent to him by Shen Hao. He read all the messages back and forth It took a long time before he realized that he had to be careful recently. Jian Jie frowned. Just when he wanted to call Shen Hao, he received another text message from him: we have our rules. What we promised you for the first time... Even this! Jian Jie is a smart boy. Shen Hao knows from this message that he won''t ask again. After receiving the mobile phone, Shen Hao extinguished the cigarette butts in the ashtray. "Brother Hao, brother Hao..." At the right time, a little brother''s hurried voice came. Shen Hao looked and saw a man panting in front of him. "What''s the matter?" Shen Hao frowned, "is it on fire or dead?" The younger brother shook his head, swallowed and hurriedly said, "Shanzi asked me to tell you that the boss wants to take Gu Yan''s order..." "What?!" Shen Hao stood up as soon as he heard this, "is the boss crazy?!" "Shanzi said..." "Say what?" Shen Hao''s face has been gloomy. What do you feel. To some extent, they always feel more accurate when they mix up on the road. The younger brother grinned, looked at Shen Hao, hardened his head and said, "the boss said that you and Gu Yan had been in contact before... So..." he began to falter, "so let you go." "It''s mainly..." the younger brother''s figure was angry. "It''s mainly that my aunt is in the society now!" What does Shen Hao''s mother mean in the club? That is, the boss is threatening him with his mother Shen Hao''s face is already dark and terrible. The younger brother looked at him and asked with a heavy voice, "brother Hao, what should I do?" Chapter 836 "Bang" came. The younger brother subconsciously stepped aside and saw the chair on one side kicked by Shen Hao. The younger brother swallowed involuntarily and smoked at the corner of his mouth, "brother Hao..." "Shit!" Shen Hao burst into foul language, "where is Shanzi?" "Boss there!" Shen Hao left without saying anything With a bitter face, the little brother hurried after him, "brother Hao, Shanzi said to calm you down..." "I work for the club," Shen Hao spit. "This is the way given by the club?!" The angry voice was filled with great anger. Shen Hao had a lot of lives. Killing a child is an easy thing But I''ve been on the road for a long time. Everyone knows whether some things can be touched or not. In Los Angeles, Gu Beichen is actually good to say, but it happens that the Dragon owl is his boss! Shen Hao got on the locomotive angrily. The roaring voice showed his anger. Under his brother''s bitter face, ''whoosh'' ran out like an offline arrow. ¡­¡­ As soon as Shen Chu arrived at the company, he listened to Shang Junhao''s notice of the meeting. When the talent sat down in the conference room, the mobile phone vibrated When Shen Chu turned on his mobile phone, it was a recorded text message. Subconsciously frowned and looked at the amount. It was 1000 yuan Just thinking about the income of this 1000 yuan, another text message came in. Beichen: pay back the meal money for Mo''er. "..." Shen Chu looked at the message and felt speechless, and then returned the message. Shen Chu: is the rest more than 100 Tips from President Gu? Am I going to say "thank you"?! Gu Beichen looked at Shen Chu''s angry text message. His thin lips were filled with a faint smile of evil Charm: I''m glad you found your place. Bless you! When Shen Chu saw this message, his hair blowing breath suddenly went out Gu Beichen didn''t reply. With more and more people in the conference room, Shen Chu''s thoughts are more and more precipitated If she is angry about being used, but at this moment, she finds... Maybe someone can use you in good faith, which is also a value of existence. Before, she didn''t even have such value. Shen Chu was suddenly relieved. After the meeting, the steps he took were full of relaxed pride. "Chen Shao, the meeting of the design department is over..." Just after Shen Chu stepped out of the conference room, Susan''s inside line had called Gu Beichen. "Yes." After Gu Beichen answered, he immediately took his mobile phone and called Shen Chu. "General gu!" Shen Chu is now in the company. Generally, he can distinguish between public and private. Gu Beichen''s voice was flat without much emotion. "Have you been to the police station?" "Well, go and protect my mother!" Shen Chu was silent, "I don''t want to protect Shen Hangzhi!" But my mother said that if she didn''t protect Shen Hangzhi, she wouldn''t come out... She was angry and didn''t protect her! "Have you ever thought," Gu Beichen slowly leaned back on the seat, and the eagle''s eyes fell deeply in front, "when a man has nothing, he will stop?" A word pierced Shen Chu''s mind. "You mean..." "I want JK!" Gu Beichen didn''t hide his purpose. Originally, the emperor only had absolute control over JK, and he didn''t intend to do anything further However, when Shen Hangzhi cooperates with Lu Yinping, it means that he kills all. "I''ll think about it." Shen Chu said after silence. "Yes." "Beichen..." Shen Chu entered the stairwell and stood in front of the big window, looking at the bustling traffic outside. "Jian Mo doesn''t feel very good, do you know?" Gu Beichen was silent and answered, "Hmm!" Shen Chu was a little surprised, but when he thought about it, he felt ridiculous. Gu Beichen loves Jian Mo so much. Haven''t you really found it at all? "Jian Mo said to see a psychologist after the new year..." when Shen first saw Gu Beichen, he said directly, "I have a friend who happens to be an expert in this field." "I''ll arrange..." Gu Beichen said. "Huh?" Shen Chu screwed off his eyebrows, some of which didn''t respond. "I don''t trust people who don''t know the truth about the current situation of Mo''er." Gu Beichen didn''t hide Shen Chu. Shen Chu sneered, "it''s also......" her voice was sarcastic, "who knows if I will retaliate?" "Xiaochu..." Gu Beichen frowned. Shen Chu''s face froze instantly, and gradually, the corners of his mouth overflowed with self mockery. In the past, Gu Beichen always called her "little chu''er" intimately. How long has it been since he called her so distantly?! "Gu Beichen, you are really a master of playing with people''s hearts..." Shen Chu said with gnashing teeth and hung up the phone. Gu Beichen listened to the hang up sound in his mobile phone. The ink pupil was deep. Then he got up, took one side''s coat, put it on and walked out. "Chen Shao, Interpol will come to hand over Lu Yinping tomorrow," Xiao Jing followed. "Are you going to the detention center now?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and kept walking. Xiao Jing pressed the down button of the elevator, "in addition, there is a problem in the capital chain of Hongxing society recently. Young master Xiaojie''s safflower is so high. Will Shen Hao..." "Xiaojie told me," Gu Beichen entered the elevator, "Shen Hao told him to be careful." Xiao Jing was stunned and then smiled, "Shen Hao is really a character." A "Ding" sound came and the elevator arrived at the underground parking lot. Gu Beichen took a step and got out of the elevator. The eagle''s eyes narrowed suddenly. "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing almost bumped into Gu Beichen because he suddenly stopped. "Reminding is one thing, but what if you remind me?" Gu Beichen spoke coldly. Xiao Jing was stunned at first, and then reacted, "Chen Shao means... Is it possible for Shen Hao to do it himself?" It''s really easier to lift the alert and start again. Gu Beichen frowned, took out his mobile phone and dialed Jian Jie''s number However, no one answered the phone for a long time. Gu Beichen had gone to the car and then dialed the villa phone. The one who answered the phone was aunt Luo, "Chen Shao?" "Where''s Xiao Jie?" Gu Beichen asked with a deep voice. "Soon after grandma and Su sanshao went out, they also went out..." said Aunt Luo. Gu Beichen didn''t say anything. He just hung up the phone. While getting on the bus, he called the bodyguard and driver arranged for Jian Jie "Chen Shao!" The bodyguard''s respectful voice came. "Where''s Xiao Jie?" The bodyguard looked at the restaurant. "I just entered the restaurant, and someone has been arranged in advance..." he said, as if he suddenly reacted, "I''ll go in and have a look." Then he opened the door and hurried into the restaurant. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was already dark. When the sound of the bodyguard''s panic came, Junlian''s face was shrouded in layers of haze. "Chen Shao, young master Jie is not in the restaurant!" Chapter 837 "Where is it?" Gu Beichen''s voice was obviously sullen. After the bodyguard reported the address, Xiao Jing accelerated and sped to the restaurant. At the same time, Jian Jie and Shen Hao squatted in the back lane of the restaurant, one big and one small. "You just come out with me," Shen Hao took out his cigarette and lit it. "You''re not afraid of what I''m going to do?" "Don''t rule out warning me first, let me have no warning, what are you doing again!" Jane Jie fanned his eyes, and his black eyes were completely clear. "Then you come out with me?" Shen Hao took a hard smoke and looked a little anxious. Jane Jie thought seriously, "we are friends. I don''t think you will do anything to me." With these words, Jane Jie''s eyes twinkled with the light of trust. "Those who often stab you twice are friends." Shen Hao looked at Jian Jie and was obviously upset in his eyes. Jane Jie was stunned. "Oh, too..." he slightly deviated his small head and looked at Shen Hao. "Will you stab me twice?" "..." Shen Hao even showed anxiety on his face, "Xiao Jie, I''m very embarrassed now." "But you don''t have a chance." Jian Jie shook his head and said seriously, "I should have more than just bodyguards... And daddy should be here soon." Before he came, he called daddy and said that Shen Hao sent him a text message "I want to do it, Chen Shao can''t catch up..." "Oh, really?" The voice of indifference came through the silence. Suddenly, the air in the back lane seemed to be frozen. Shen Hao looked sideways and suddenly stood up when he saw that it was Gu Beichen. "Daddy..." Jian Jie got up and went to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen looked at him, obviously with anger in his eyes. Jian Jie looked up at Gu Beichen. His cute appearance was completely flattering. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is deep, and there is a warning in his eyes. "Chen Shao came so fast," Shen Hao threw his cigarette. "But if I do, you won''t be able to catch up." "Really?" Gu Beichen sneered coldly. His cold face was filled with indifference. Someone opened the red flower list. How could he just put his bodyguard around Xiao Jie? "Chen Shao," Shen Hao evil hooked one corner of his mouth, "you should know very well that you are afraid to think about anything." Although he doesn''t want to move Jian Jie himself, he just delays time to confuse the boss so that Shanzi can take his mother! If you really kill Jane Jie, it only takes three seconds for him Even if Gu Beichen arranges more people, it''s useless! Shen Hao''s mobile phone vibrated in his pocket at the right time. He looked at Beichen and took out Seeing that it was Shanzi, he picked it up and put it in his ear, "how''s it going? Has someone brought it out?" "Brother Hao, Hong Xingtang has been taken away!" Shanzi''s voice was dignified and frightened. "I didn''t see my aunt..." Shen Hao frowned, "what do you mean?" Shanzi closed his eyes, "the people in the Mo palace did it!" His breath was obviously unstable, "fast and ruthless... It has been spread in the road. The Mo palace wants to protect Gu Yan''s life. Who will take it..." "Bang!" Shanzi didn''t have time to finish his words. After a sound, there was no more movement. "Good son?!" Shen Hao''s voice was full of urgent worry. He knew what the sound was just now. Shen Hao even couldn''t care about anything else. Under the confused sight of Gu Beichen and Jian Jie, he crossed them... His face and body were filled with panic. Everything happened as if inexplicable, but there was something strange in it. Shen Hao galloped to the stronghold on his motorcycle. However, in the noisy traffic flow in the afternoon, the gunfire with silencer penetrated the rapid Then, there was a harsh crash sound on the road, which made people nearby stop. The sirens of police cars and ambulances echoed on the road. Onlookers only thought there was a car accident, but after forensic examination, they found that there was a small caliber gun hole under Shen Hao''s temple, which was stained with a large amount of blood. The comprehensive and rapid destruction of Hongxing society has caused an uproar both on the road and the police. There is no doubt that the means of Mo Palace are rapid and fierce. No matter whether Shen Hao will kill Jian Jie in the end, Hongxing society has an idea... It is doomed to perish! This sharp and fierce thunder means is so fast and cruel that people''s hearts tremble. What''s more, the killers who have surrounded Los Angeles began to retreat one after another No one wants to fight against Mo palace. For them, it will really be a nightmare. In news reports, Shen Hao died in a car accident because of racing. What''s the specific reason? For fear of causing public unrest... In a country where there is no real freedom of speech, naturally no one will poke sensitive topics. Gu Beichen looked at the news with deep eyes, and his chin line tightened. Such means, in addition to Shi Shaoqin, will not be others. ¡­¡­ When Su Jun left to send Jian Mo back, Jian Jie was punished to stand again. "What''s the matter?" As soon as Jian Mo entered the villa, he felt a strange atmosphere and then looked at Jian Jie who was punished to stand. Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Jian Jie looked pitifully at Jian mo. Su Junli is also strange. In addition to being "sarcastic" about Mo Mo, Xiao Jie is cute and good to everyone... Especially Gu Beichen. Now it''s like making a mistake. Jane Mo walked over, looked at the father and son, and then sat down. "Can anyone tell us something?" Jane Mo frowned slightly. Gu Beichen still didn''t speak. Jian Jie glanced at him secretly. His voice was rarely wilted and said, "Daddy, can it be our secret?" He knew he was not on guard against Shen Hao, but he just thought Shen Hao was a friend. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes glanced at him, ignored him, and just looked at Su Jun Li. "I have something else to do. Let''s go first." Su Junli glanced at Jian Mo and then at the poor Jian Jie. He laughed at himself and turned away. Even if you love Xiaojie and watch Xiaojie grow up, he just leaves, doesn''t he?! "What do you mean I can''t know?" Jane Mo is obviously dissatisfied with her father and son''s secret. "Mommy..." Jian Jie said, "can you stop asking about men''s affairs?" "..." Jane Mo was shocked when she heard this, "what kind of man are you?" Jian Jie mumbled and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen certainly won''t tell Jian Mo about Shen Hao. She''s already depressed because of Xiaoyan. Isn''t it worse for her to worry about Xiaojie again? "He secretly moved J''s computer," Gu Beichen lied without changing his face. "J is making a defense program for the emperor''s IT department. Xiao Jie doesn''t know what he pressed down, and the computers of the whole department are paralyzed..." "How possible?" At the right time, J came in from the outside. He looked unbelievable and said, "my computer has set a password. Xiao Jie can''t open it." Jian Jie rolled his eyes secretly and winked at J, "you played with me last night. I saw you enter the password and wrote it down..." J frowned and looked at Jian Jie suspiciously, as if he still felt impossible. However, he doesn''t have much contact with people on weekdays. When Jane Jie said this, he didn''t think about it seriously, and he really believed it. Most of all, he''s not in the mood for it at the moment. Seeing him rubbing against Gu Beichen, he asked mysteriously, "Chen Shao, did you watch the accident news?" Gu Beichen frowned at this. Just wanted to warn J not to talk nonsense, but j has said quickly: "I was nearby at that time. I don''t think it was a car accident, it was a shooting..." Jian Mo and Jian Jie both looked at J with different eyes J didn''t notice and said quickly, "it feels like a means of Qin Shao!" Chapter 838 The atmosphere suddenly became stiff, but I didn''t know whether it was because of the shooting or because J mentioned Shi Shaoqin. Jian Mo''s breath was obviously fluffy, but Jian Jie asked curiously, "what shooting? What car accident?" "No..." "A man rode a heavy motorcycle and had a car accident on Guanghua Road," J said excitedly when Gu Beichen spoke. "I just saw that he was definitely not a car accident. He should have been shot in the head and then..." Gu Beichen''s face was very dark. He felt the excitement of his words. Finally, his voice slowed down slowly, and then looked at him with a muddled face. "What''s the matter?" J frowned, looked at Jian Mo and Jian Jie, and said, "I just..." Gu Beichen scanned the past with a sharp look, and j didn''t make a sound. Jian Jie looked up at Gu Beichen. "Daddy?" "These are not what a child should know..." Gu Beichen''s voice showed the domineering spirit of being a father. Jian Jie glanced. "There are many such situations abroad..." He muttered that he was not as afraid of possible malicious events as ordinary children. But I thought I was still being punished to stand now, and I didn''t dare to refute too much. Jane Mo felt something and didn''t ask. She just looked at poor Jane Jie and said, "grandma Lu bought you New Year''s clothes. Do you want to go up and have a look?" Jian Jie looked at Jian Mo and then Gu Beichen. The look in his eyes said: Mommy, don''t you see that I''m being punished? "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo shouted. "You and your mommy go upstairs first!" Gu Beichen''s faint voice came in time. Jane Mo smiled slightly at the corners of her mouth and gave Jane Jie a proud look. Then she took the shopping and went upstairs with him. "Heterosexual, inhuman..." Jane Jie''s voice was the same as mosquito hum. When he reached the stairs, he couldn''t help looking back at J. his black eyes were filled with doubts. Seeing Jian Mo and Jian Jie entering the room, Gu Beichen took a cold look at J, then picked up his mobile phone and sent a text message to Xiao Jing: erase Shen Hao''s information in all the news. Xiao Jing has been with Gu Beichen for so many years. When he says this, he already knows: what''s on the network? Gu Beichen: J processing! After replying, Gu Beichen said faintly, "how long do you need to erase the personal information on the accident network?" "Three minutes!" J picks eyebrows and has self-confidence under pride. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered. J didn''t move. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "don''t you understand?" J tilted his mouth, angrily took out the computer, turned it on, and muttered "Qin Shao never did this to me..." J made it clear that he was dissatisfied. "You begged me to do it as if I begged you." "Shi Shaoqin won''t take you to the playground!" Gu Beichen overlapped his slender legs and was lazy. J stared angrily at Gu Beichen and frowned while turning on the computer. "Hey, my computer hasn''t been passive?! how can Xiao Jie touch my computer?" "..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. If you don''t know J''s simple nature, you must think he''s a fool. "Oh..." J suddenly realized, "you just lied to Jane Mo, didn''t you?!" He looked at Gu Beichen, "Hey, why did you lie to her?" Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face has tightened its lines, "it''s been a minute!" J tilted his mouth, flipped his fingers on the keyboard and said, "I know if you don''t say... You''re just afraid I''ll mention Qin Shao." Gu Beichen ignored J, but the eagle''s eyes became dark. J felt the surrounding air condensing gradually, and subconsciously swallowed it. Nuo looked at Gu Beichen "I didn''t mean to mention it..." J tilted his mouth and continued his movements. He has been in Mo palace for several years. Qin Shao doesn''t care about him. Of course, he has studied the techniques of Mo palace! Gu Beichen is obviously unhappy with his cold face. "I knew I wouldn''t come..." J hummed, "I helped you get 3% of the shares, hum!" Just like a child getting angry, J''s men move fast and keep talking about something Although, in Gu Beichen''s eyes, he was also a child. "The man''s death is related to Xiaojie..." Gu Beichen said faintly. "Ah?!" At the same time, J looked at Gu Beichen in surprise. "If you want to make Xiaojie feel guilty or something, you can continue to say..." Gu Beichen said coldly. Xu is in love with Wu. J likes Jian Mo very much. Jian Jie is fun and has a common topic with him. When he came to Los Angeles, he spent almost all his time with Jian Jie, except for helping Gu Beichen and pestering Jian mo. At this moment, when Gu Beichen said this, he was surprised and more sure that Qin Shao did Shen Hao''s death. "Is it related to the safflower list?!" J rubbed to Gu Beichen and asked in a deliberately low voice. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. J looked proud, "how can I say that I have been in Mo palace for so long, how can I not know these things?" J was lying on the sofa, "but Qin Shao spoke. Gu Yan''s life is his!" Gu Beichen glanced at J. although he was not surprised, he always felt that this was a little strange. "Although Xiao Jie''s name is Gu Yan now," J skimmed, "how can I sound a little awkward?!" What he said was unintentional, but the words fell into Gu Beichen''s ears, but his heart suddenly tightened Xiaojie wants to accompany him and Mo''er with Xiaoyan''s love, but in the end... The name has become an indelible wound. Jane Mo opened the bedroom and tightened their hands. She had come downstairs to two glasses of water However, as soon as I opened the door, I heard J''s sentence "Xiao Jie is now called Gu Yan". Suddenly, the position of my heart suddenly cramped. In the fundus of the eyes, there is a sense of guilt that cannot be flashed, and a strong moment envelops the whole body. "Mommy?" Jane Jie washed her hands and came out of the bathroom. She saw Jane Mo standing at the door. Jane Mo quickly restrained her mind and closed the door gently. "Didn''t you say to pour water?" Jian Jie said, went to take his cell phone and wanted to surf the Internet to see the car accident J said. "Not thirsty again..." Jane Jie looked at Jane Mo strangely and then looked down at the news. The scene of the car accident is a little messy, maybe it''s too bloody. The picture is mosaic. What''s the name of the dead person and what''s his identity? It''s just that he''s still testing DNA, but it''s not confirmed Jian Jie saw that there was no valuable information. He turned his mouth and didn''t care much about what J just said. Jane Mo sat down beside Jane Jie and looked at him quietly. Junya''s little face is full of "maturity" under childishness. Jian Mo looks at Jian Jie and his mind is full of the pictures of that night Blood, pain, and when you wake up, there''s nothing in your stomach! If Xiao Yan were still there, would he have smiled at her?! After being watched for a long time, Jian Jie tilted his head to Jian Mo curiously, "Mommy?!" "Ah?" Jian Mo was suddenly surprised. Seeing that Jian Jie was confused, he hurried to say, "no... it''s all right!" Chapter 839 Jian Jie fanned his eyes. In his black eyes, he obviously disliked Jian Mo looked at Jian Jie''s look, ''don''t think I''m a fool, okay?'' and grinned. "Mommy, what''s on your mind?" Jane asked. Jane Mo was a little flustered, "no, I was just thinking about the car accident J said..." "Here!" Jian Jie handed his mobile phone to Jian Mo, "it may not be a simple accident, or the media can''t write so obscure..." Jane Mo is not interested in the car accident. Even if Shi Shaoqin or who did it, she is not interested. To put it plainly, she is instinctively afraid to think of the he Mo palace and everything about Shi Shaoqin. ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin listened to the report on the phone. The beautiful handsome face didn''t feel a little emotional because many people died. "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered faintly and then hung up the phone. The morning sun in New York is very good. There is no cold in the air. "Qin Shao..." Xi Cheng came in and saw Shi Shaoqin standing in front of the window, "are you looking for me?" As far as he knows, Qin Shao likes to stand in front of the window. However, it must be when the heavy curtains are pulled Since when did Qin Shao allow the sunshine in this room?! Shi Shaoqin turned slowly. "Can he move now?" "Better not move..." Xi Cheng shrugged. "After all, no one can guarantee anything!" Shi Shaoqin frowned faintly, "HMM." Xi Cheng looked puzzled... That''s it?! "Qin Shao means..." Xi Cheng asked with some heart. Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes slightly. "It''s the new year..." he turned and looked at the rising sun. "It''s pathetic to keep him in the hospital." Xi Cheng twitched at the corners of his mouth. He always felt that Qin Shao was now full of strangeness. "I''m going back to Mo palace in the afternoon," Shi Shaoqin said slightly. "Just stay here." "Will Qin Shao come back soon?" Xi Cheng asked. Shi Shaoqin was silent. After a while, he said: "it''s always bad for him to spend the new year alone in the hospital..." However, his voice is very light, as if it is self murmuring. Xi Cheng reacted for a long time before he understood what Shi Shaoqin meant?! God Is he auditory hallucination or thinking too much? It''s always cold-blooded. Even if there are few jues, there won''t be too many feelings. At this moment, I even accompany him for the new year for a fart bigger baby?! Xi Cheng swallowed involuntarily, and suddenly there was a strong feeling If his medicine doesn''t work on that little thing, he''ll be dead! "That..." Xi Cheng felt his nose nervously. "Qin Shao, i... I have something else to do. I''ll get it first." Without waiting for Shi Shaoqin to speak, Xi Cheng quickly turned around and left. He has to see if the medicine needs to be improved before the second injection He doesn''t care about that little thing''s life, but he can''t catch up with his own! ¡­¡­ "Wait a minute, I have something to go out..." Gu Beichen said at dinner. Jane Mo answered, "you''d better get busy," she said with a smile. "But... If you exceed the access control, you''ll sleep outside." Gu Beichen said slightly, "access control?" When did you have access control at home? "Well, it''s just set up today..." Jian Mo sandwiched dishes to Jian Jie. "It''s said that President Gu has received many invitations recently... Well, many beauties." "..." Gu Beichen slightly sank his face, "I don''t want Xiao Jing''s year-end bonus next year!" Jane Mo smiled. Before she spoke, she saw Xiao Jing pushing the door in. Xiao Jing''s face was bitter. "Chen Shao, don''t you bother to talk about things with the year-end bonus?" "Why don''t I know that you still have the habit of making small reports?" Gu Beichen snorted coldly. "No..." Xiao Jing looked innocent. "Those invitations were written to the emperor''s highest level... I thought, Chen Shao, although you are the CEO, you can''t stand it. Madam Shao is the largest shareholder!" "..." Gu Beichen looked coldly. Jane Mo smiled happily, "well, I can see Xiao Jing get a raise." Xiao Jing sat down on an empty chair. "Yes, madam!" With that, you''re welcome and automatically took a bowl of rice. "Dogleg!" J tilted his mouth, obviously flattering Jian Mo to Xiao Jing, and some didn''t like it. "Uncle Jing," Jian Jie said at the right time, "personally, I think you''re depressed now, and the stingy people will give you small shoes." Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen. "It''s all right. I''m used to it..." "I can see it!" Jane Jie nodded in earnest. Because Xiao Jing came over, the atmosphere was obviously lively. It''s mainly his nonsense, which makes people have no extra thoughts to think about anything else After dinner, Xiao Jing and Gu Beichen left the mid levels villa and went to the police station. "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing changed his smiling face and looked at Gu Beichen in the back seat from the rearview mirror. "The whereabouts of the second uncle can''t be found again." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes became quiet and cold, as cold as the ink palace outside. "At the beginning, I could make a deal with Shi Shaoqin, and now I can find someone to open the red flower list..." He hissed coldly, "it''s really urgent, and the dog will jump over the wall!" "Chen Shao means..." Xiao Jing frowned. "Then force again!" Gu Beichen''s voice became cold, "I don''t want a time bomb around at any time..." "Start with what Yuanda did in those years?" Xiao Jing asked. Gu Beichen was silent. "Didn''t Ge Mengru agree to take the account book?" "Well," Xiao nodded, "Nanshao also said that he can solve it in one day at most." "I don''t know if I can have a good life this year..." Gu Beichen slightly twisted his eyebrows. Xiao Jing was silent. At last, he sighed secretly. He didn''t say anything more, but drove steadily Sometimes it''s really unclear between people. Jian Mo''s mother is the former Secretary of Chen Shaochen''s father, and his father is the cause of Mo Shaochen''s parents'' death Although, the final court decision has nothing to do with him. Later, Chen Shao''s mother "forced" Jian Mo''s father to death In order to save her mother, Jane Mo married chenshao again! Tut Tut, Xiao Jing feels headache just by sorting out this relationship It''s just in case. These things are true. I really don''t know how much one should bear in the future. But what? Who let Chen love Jane Mo less If you don''t want your woman to be sad, you have to bear more! Or Susan is right. Only when you don''t love someone can you be really free and easy Two people may not be happy together, and one person may not be unhappy. Well, individuals have their own happiness... Whether two or one. ¡­¡­ Night, dotted with stars in the dark sky, indicates that the next day must be a sunny day. However, darkness has never disappeared... As long as there is light, there must be shadow! "You mean..." in the shadow, a man looked at the man with the soldier''s cap with both hands. "Jane Mo has a mental illness?" "Yes." The man in the ordnance hat answered with a deep voice, "I think Jane Mo can use..." Chapter 840 Gu Beichen''s car stopped in front of the Los Angeles detention center At night, it seems to be shrouded in a layer of ashes and death. However, the huge police badge has a sacred and inviolable solemnity. Xiao Jing looked back at Bei Chen, then both opened the door and got out of the car. "It has been arranged..." Xiao Jing staggered Gu Beichen half a step. "Luo yueman should be OK to say there. It depends on Shen Hangzhi." "I remember right. It seems that Jian Heng had some shares in JK at the beginning!" Gu Beichen stopped when he was going up the steps. "Yes." Xiao Jing answered, "however, it should be taken away by Gu mohuai..." Although not much, and JK under the absolute control of the emperor, that little share can not turn a day. But it''s a hidden danger! Uncle Xiao doesn''t seem to understand that he has been hiding his rights abroad. If Shen Hangzhi had not been involved in the Lu Yinping incident, they would have almost forgotten it. Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen with a touch of doubt in his sight He forgot, Chen Shao should not have! But I didn''t kill them all, but I left a trace of family affection Gu Beichen glanced at Xiao Jing and saw his eyes twinkle. He just put down a faint sentence: "in the end, his parents are kind to grandma..." Then he raised his steady step, went up the steps and entered the detention center. Xiao Jing felt his nose a little boring and muttered: "it''s great to be able to see through people''s minds... You''re invading privacy!" Of course, he dares to whet his mouth like this and face Gu Beichen. He''s not stupid. Gu Beichen said hello in advance when he came to the detention center today. Originally, it came during the day. However, when the Shen Hao incident happened, it was only at night. The director of the detention center waited all day. When he didn''t see Gu Beichen, he looked gloomy However, when I saw him, his face turned cloudy and sunny, flattering. "Chen Shao, people have arranged..." the director of the detention center rubbed his hands, obviously hesitating. Gu Beichen''s Mo Tong glanced at him indifferently, "why? There''s something out of control?" "That..." the director pulled at the corners of his mouth, with embarrassment on his face. "The man has been uneasy since he was brought in..." Gu Beichen''s sight gradually became deep and fell on the director, which made him swallow involuntarily. "In fact, there''s nothing..." the director said hard, "even those who have been talking nonsense... Can''t control it, so..." Gu Beichen coldly converged his sight and continued to walk forward. His voice was low in the cold, "what are you talking about?" The director listened to Gu Beichen''s question and suddenly ''cluttered'' in his heart, "it''s... it''s nothing..." "Oh?" Gu Beichen heard softly, looked at the director of his eyes and kept walking. The director felt that Gu Beichen was young, but he was filled with heavy hostility, which made people gasp for breath. Most importantly, he felt that Gu Beichen knew what Lu Yinping would say? Is... What Lu Yinping said true?! Thinking like this, the director subconsciously swallowed No... Gu Beichen was kidnapped before and was really ruined by men?! Gu Beichen suddenly stopped. The director was thinking about something. People rushed out for a few steps before they reacted. Some embarrassed hurried back, "Chen Shao, what''s the matter?" "Has the director confirmed it?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a faint smile of evil charm, if any. When the director was stunned and met Gu Beichen''s weak vision, the whole person''s nerves were uncontrollably nervous. "Prove... Prove..." the director became kowtow because of nervousness, grinned and hardened his head and asked, "prove what?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, "that depends on what the director thinks in his heart?" "..." the director only felt Gu Beichen''s eyes pierced him at once. That chilly feeling is really uncomfortable. Gu Beichen withdrew his sight indifferently and continued to move forward The director secretly bared his teeth and hurried forward, "in fact, i... I just want to say that no matter what Lu Yinping said, Chen Shao, don''t mind." He swallowed nervously, "if a person is desperate, he usually has no way to hide his mouth." Gu Beichen ignored the director, who became more and more embarrassed. No matter what Lu Yinping said is true or false, it can only rot in the detention center If this comes out, it''s estimated that the good days will come to an end. After Gu Beichen entered the reception room, he just took a look at the director The director suddenly reacted, motioned the police officer to take Lu Yinping to, and then withdrew. Lu Yinping looks in good shape. At least, he still has the energy to stare at Beichen. "Gu Beichen, you''d better not let me have a chance to go out..." Lu Yinping said coldly, "otherwise, I won''t let you live!" Gu Beichen indifferently took out the smoke and lit it. All his actions were full of evil under the cold charm. "You have to see me, just give me a hard word?" While the low voice overflowed the thin lips, Gu Beichen slowly raised his eyelids, and the ink pupil fell on Lu Yinping''s face. Lu Yinping''s pupils widened, and when anger filled all the time, he stifled it again. "Lord Luo fell down," Lu Yinping sat down on the table, his white hands showing his anger, "but I''m fine... In fact, it''s your trick." "Yes!" Gu Beichen did not shy away, "at first, I just guessed who had the 3% stake." Lu Yinping bit his teeth and didn''t speak. "At first, when I fought with Gu mohuai... Help me." Gu Beichen flicked the ash. "I thought it was Shaoqin." Lu Yinping''s eyes have become gloomy "Later, Gu murhuai fell down," Gu Beichen continued, "but I don''t think so." "Really?" "Yes." Gu Beichen replied lightly, "I want to get rid of the past. Naturally, I have to solve the problem of Shaoqin first..." he looked at Lu Yinping and his eyes became cold. "In fact, you''ve been doing it very secretly, but it''s a pity..." Lu Yinping twitched uncontrollably at the corners of his mouth, "what a pity?" "Unfortunately, you''re in a hurry." Gu Beichen seemed a little sorry. The emperor''s stock market is too volatile. If it weren''t for the identity of the Dragon owl and the emperor''s current position in Los Angeles, he wouldn''t have taken the emperor as a bait Sure enough, people can''t be greedy. Once greedy, you can''t control your bath hope. "If you didn''t rush forward, I might not have guessed that this matter was related to Lord Luo..." Gu Beichen sneered, "so that''s why I didn''t do it to Luo Songxian''s people in an all-round way." "Didn''t you have no chance because Jane Mo had an accident in Mo palace?" Lu Yinping gritted his teeth. Gu Beichen''s face was filled with a trace of pain. "I''ve calculated everything, indeed..." his eyes suddenly became cold. "It was revealed that Luo Songxian had so many people in the Mo palace." If not, Mo''er won''t have an accident and Xiao Yan won''t leave Gu Beichen looked at Lu Yinping''s line of sight, and his handsome face was shrouded in a terrible haze. Cigarette butts, mixed with cold, were extinguished. "But I didn''t plan to do it all in advance," Gu Beichen''s voice was obviously a little dark. "It''s just that the accident in Mo palace has become a better cover." Lu Yinping looked at Gu Beichen''s action and suddenly smiled. He stared, gritted his teeth and shouted, "do you really think you can count how many things? Do you really think... It''s the only one?" Chapter 841 Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed gently "Ha ha... Gu Beichen," Lu Yinping''s smile grew stronger and stronger, "you can''t count things... Many go! Ha ha..." The crazy smile spread arrogantly, because the empty reception room became particularly treacherous. Gu Beichen looked at Lu Yinping and said coldly, "you mean the funds in Gu mohuai''s hand?" Lu Yinping suddenly stopped laughing. "The highest award of the emperor''s annual meeting," Gu Beichen seemed to patiently dispel Lu Yinping''s doubts. "From the beginning, he lured you to do it, and finally it seemed to fall on Shen Chu''s hand by accident... From beginning to end, it was just a move of chess." Shen Chu wants to come out, he knows. If the other party doesn''t talk about Gu mohuai, he can guarantee... When Lu Yinping comes to her, she will come to him! In the end, Shen Chu just arrived at his destination and sent him a "sorry"! In fact, the matter is very simple. He didn''t force his second uncle to die because he showed his grandmother''s kindness. However, after what happened to Xiao Yan His heart really became cold. In this world, only you are cruel and cold enough can you really protect the people you want to protect. He didn''t want Mo''er to be hurt again, and he didn''t want Xiaojie to have any accidents. Can he find Shi Shaoqin in a low voice and really think that he doesn''t care about the past? no But he dare not be willful, even dare not gamble! When Shaoqin asked for Mo''er, he was angry But he calculated that Shaoqin owed Xiao Yan''s life. Xiao Jie, he will guarantee it! After that drug problem, Mo''er won''t let and push away... Even if it''s hard between two - people. Even, Jane Zhanfeng was really caused by her mother, and their death was also the reason of Jane Zhanfeng He won''t let Jane go. It''s simple He used all he had to build a perfect world for her. Even if all the pain, he would bear it It''s just that things are changeable. Sometimes fate always jokes with everyone. Such a "joke" can''t be controlled even if you are full of ups and downs... After all, no matter how smart you are, you are just a person and can''t cover everything! When leaving the detention center, Xiao Jing and Luo yueman waited outside, but Shen Hangzhi was not there. Gu Beichen walked over and looked at Luo yueman, who looked haggard, suddenly felt very sad. The women in the rich family seem to be either as strong as their mother or as humble as Luo yueman "Xiaochu has worked very hard and worked very hard..." Gu Beichen said indifferently, "if you are still a mother, you shouldn''t continue to be selfish." Luo yueman looked up at Gu Beichen "Have you ever felt guilty about sacrificing your daughter for the love you will never get?" Gu Beichen sneered and turned to go out. Xiao Jing gestured to Luo yueman. After the three got on the bus, they went to the city "Stop ahead," Gu Beichen said indifferently, "Xiao Jing, take her to Shen Chu." "Chen Shao, what about you?" Xiao Jing frowned. "I walk..." Xiao Jing answered and pulled over. After Gu Beichen got off the bus, he walked along the street full of Nian flavor Occasionally, there are children playing with guns. He can''t help stopping and watching for a while. Whether it''s Xiao Yan or Xiao Jie... As a father, he owes too much, too much! ¡­¡­ Mid levels villa. J and Xiao Jie are playing with firecrackers outside. Xiao Jie is OK. J can be said to have such a happy time for the first time. It used to be lonely, but later in Mo palace... There was a lot of gunpowder, but it was all ammunition, not firecrackers. Aunt Luo and the servants in the villa didn''t sleep one by one. They watched the two children, one big and one small, playing, with smiling faces on their faces Mid levels villa for so many years, this is the first year with the flavor of the year! Jane Mo stood in front of the French window and looked at the playful J and Xiao Jie. Because it was cold outside, she didn''t dare to stand outside for too long Mainly, I don''t want ah Chen to worry. Looking at the figure chasing with a spark stick in his hand, Jane Mo suddenly found that their names all have ''J'', is it a kind of fate? "Young grandma, have a rest?" Aunt Luo came over with fruit tea on her face. "Have a drink. It''s estimated that they''ll have to play for a while." "Well, good!" Jane Mo answered with a smile and went back to the sofa. Aunt Luo poured Jian Mo a cup of fruit tea and said, "I''ll get some more snacks. Young master J and young master Jie consume their energy like this. They must be hungry later..." "Thank you, aunt Luo." Aunt Luo laughed angrily, stared at Jian Mo angrily, and turned to the kitchen. Jane Mo bent over with a smile on her mouth and wanted to carry the cup At the right time, Jane Jie''s mobile phone flashed, and she subconsciously looked at the past The mobile screensaver is a photo... It''s their only family photo. In the sun, Gu Beichen kneels down on one knee and kisses her swollen stomach. Xiaojie sits on his neck and she kisses Xiaojie The sun is shining, the years are quiet, and everything is so beautiful that people are intoxicated. Something was stabbed in the heart. When the screen was dark again, Jane Mo only felt nausea for a while "Well", Jane Mo subconsciously covered her mouth and hurried upstairs. I ran all the way to the bathroom. I couldn''t help it anymore. I threw up on the toilet "Vomit... Vomit..." Sad voices filled the bathroom. Under the smooth floor and wall, Jane Mo''s figure was unreal reflected. Outside, Jian Jie and J had a good time. Gradually, the young servants joined the ranks Laughter filled the night, mixed with the sad vomiting in the bathroom at the moment, and filled the villa with an unspeakable sense of strangeness. The sound of rushing water came Jane Mo was powerless on the dresser and looked at herself in the mirror, looking strange. ¡­¡­ When Gu Beichen came back, the yard of the villa had been noisy He looked at it from a distance, and the corner of his mouth involuntarily spilled a smile. That smile, however, spread in an instant. "Daddy..." Jian Jie was the first to find Gu Beichen and ran over excitedly. When the servants saw Gu Beichen, they were subconsciously nervous, but they still had spark sticks in their hands. They couldn''t just throw them to the ground. Gu Beichen squatted down, looked at the sweat on Jian Jie''s face, wiped it for him, kissed it and said, "keep playing!" He motioned to everyone and then entered the villa. With him, it is estimated that no one can play at will except J and Xiao Jie. There was no figure of Jian Mo in the living room. Gu Beichen was a little surprised. "Hey, Chen Shao, you''re back..." aunt Luo came out with a snack. "Where''s Mo''er?" Aunt Luo looked around. "I was still on the sofa at that time..." she paused. "Did you go upstairs?!" "I''ll go up and have a look..." Gu Beichen said, and the man had gone up the stairs. Looking at the open bedroom door, Gu Beichen went in But when he looked around and finally fell at the bathroom door and looked at the scene in front of him, his ink pupil suddenly became deep Chapter 842 Jian Mo stood at the bathroom door and looked at Gu Beichen with some eyes. Gu Beichen''s sight became deeper and deeper. He saw Jian Mo standing there naked with nothing on his body He looked at Jian Mo''s exquisite figure, and his sight was getting deeper and deeper, just like the ink space outside, swallowed by the vastness. Jane Mo didn''t expect Gu Beichen to come back suddenly, mainly because she had just vomited. She was afraid of bad taste, so she wanted to rush. However, after washing, she found that she had brought nothing into the bathroom. The sound of frolicking outside remained the same. Jane Mo thought that there was no one in the villa at the moment... Besides, there was generally no one in the bedroom. There''s no way to manage it. I''m going to find a nightgown to put on first Who knows, as soon as she came out of the bathroom, Gu Beichen stood at the door. There was a touch of panic at the bottom of her eyes. Jane Mo didn''t know when Gu Beichen came back. Was it when she vomited, or when she took a bath... Or just came in?! Gu Beichen deeply coagulated Jian Mo and looked at her uncontrollable panic at the bottom of her eyes. He frowned slightly and invisibly Did she throw up again?! Gu Beichen''s eyes became deep with Jian Mo, and he couldn''t tell whether it was hot or what Jane Mo was so naked that even if she was close to Gu Beichen, she was still a little embarrassed to look at her like this. Gu Beichen had closed the door and walked to Jian mo. when he took his bathrobe and put it on her, "although the villa is constant temperature, you''re not afraid of getting sick?" "Daddy, Mommy..." "Dong Dong!" When the young voice came, it was accompanied by a knock on the door. Gu Beichen has reacted now, and Jian Mo has been teased by him and filled with love bath "You can find time, son!" Gu Beichen''s voice was low and dull. Jane Mo snorted, "you have a black belly..." Gu Beichen''s evil spirit hooked the corner of his lips and kissed Jane Mo at the corner of his mouth. He could only respond to Jane Jie first, "what''s the matter?" "Aunt Luo asked Mommy if she would like some supper?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and then his eyes crossed with a touch of helplessness, "change your clothes first..." After saying this to Jane Mo, he turned and opened the door. "You panic, you don''t speak well!" Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and looked at Jian Jie with his small face on his back. Jane Jie frowned, "really?" He wondered, "I''ll improve next time..." he said, and he wanted to see it in the bedroom. Unfortunately, Jian Mo has entered the dressing room, and Gu Beichen has no intention of letting Jian Jie in. The ink pupil emitted two pure lights, and Gu Beichen rowed to the stairs, "I need to remind you that you should be less with J in the future." "Why?" Jane Jie wondered. Gu Beichen sighed, leaned over and picked up Jian Jie, pulled up the bedroom door and walked downstairs, "because you will learn bad..." "How can you learn bad with me?" J jumped out with dissatisfaction. Jian Jie rolled over his eyes, looked at the breathless J, sighed and said, "sure enough, I can''t walk in a round..." J also just reacted that he was excited by Gu Beichen and immediately gnawed his teeth in anger. Downstairs, aunt Luo''s face was full of kind smiles. Home is like home. Alas... If young master Xiao Yan is here, he should be happier?! ¡­¡­ "Qin Shao..." Meno just came out of the insulation room and saw Shi Shaoqin standing at the door. "How are you?" Meno was slightly stunned, then nodded with a smile, "the situation is very stable..." as she said, she couldn''t help admiring, "Xi Cheng''s medicine is very effective." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered faintly and then stepped into the insulation room. Meno looked back at Shi Shaoqin, his eyes flashing a vague emotion. A cold and fierce person should do so to a child Well, maybe this is what they Oriental say, fate?! Meno didn''t bother Shi Shaoqin. Every time he looked at the little guy, he didn''t like to be disturbed by others. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the incubator. Unlike before, his life was weak. Because of Xi Cheng''s medicine, Xiao Yan had gradually improved. "I won''t let you come to this world for the first year. There is no one to accompany me..." Shi Shaoqin gently brushed his fingers across the incubator, as if stroking Xiao Yan''s face. "I''ll be back soon." But no one in his heart can answer slowly. That feeling is very strange. It''s like something is holding him tightly and waiting for him gently! The plane crossed the sky, leaving a wisp of white smoke, but it also disappeared in sight in a moment Shi Shaoqin glanced out of the window. In his narrow eyes, he became unknowingly gentle because of Xiao Yan. When you arrive at the Mo palace, the early sun just rises in the Mo palace. Different from other places, around the new year is the busiest time in Mo palace. The shipment volume of drug products will also be the largest in the whole year Because of Xiao Yan, Shi Shaoqin hasn''t been in the Mo palace recently. Now Mosen is dead. It can be said that he can only command many things remotely. "Qin Shao..." The respectful voice came, and Shi Shaoqin got off the plane indifferently and walked to the ancient castle. The sunrise penetrates the thick clouds, and the fine warmth is spread on the beach and sea, sparkling Suddenly, Shi Shaoqin stopped and his sight fell on the beach. There, a lonely sunflower blooming in the sun swaying gently with the wind Mo palace has no green vegetation except the back mountain. The sunflower planted before Jian Mo was also treated after a rainstorm. But in a place that hasn''t seen green for more than ten years, there is a sunflower on the beach... Although the flower plate is not big! Yes? Towards the sun, savage growth? Shi Shaoqin''s body gradually overflowed with a treacherous smell, full of depression Suddenly, the surrounding air seemed to become thin. The people who followed Shi Shaoqin swallowed it secretly and said nervously, "Jue... Jue Shao won''t let us deal with it. He said... Let''s get out of the way..." Chapter 843 Shi Shaoqin did not speak, but looked at the same sunflower, and his sight became deeper and deeper. My mind is full of not too distant pictures He sprinkled the sunflowers, and Jane Mo just held her stomach and struggled to pick them up one by one She confidently said there were 360, so she stubbornly found them... But in the end, one was missing. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes have narrowed up. At the right time, a sea breeze blew... The sunflower swayed greatly. "Qin... Qin Shao..." The people who followed had their scalp numb. Shi Shaoqin didn''t move or answer. He just kept looking at the sunflower. Something exploded in his mind. A moment ago, because of Xiao Yan''s softness, something was injected and burst. Shi Shaoqin lifted his feet and walked over... Until he stopped near the sunflower! The waves beat the beach with the tenderness of the morning, and the sunflowers bloom against the rising sun. "Plant sunflower seeds and harvest the sunshine..." a soft voice came from behind, with a faint smile, "Shaoqin, it''s beautiful, isn''t it?" Shi Shaoqin looked back at Shi Jue Chi. His beautiful face was full of evil cunning under indifference, "it shouldn''t be here..." "Just like Mo Mo," Shi juechi went to Shi Shaoqin and stood side by side with him, "shouldn''t he appear in the Mo palace?" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, "Jue Chi?" "Shaoqin, in fact... Many things are beyond our control." Shi Jue Chi looked sideways at Shi Shaoqin, "for example, the coming and going of foam, the sunflower seed that was not found has now opened sunflowers." Shi Shaoqin''s face cooled slightly. Shi Jue Chi smiled softly, "come back to spend the new year with me?" "I''ll leave tomorrow at the latest..." Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "things outside are tricky." "You explain to me?" Shi juechi was a little surprised. Although Shi Shaoqin was not in the Mo palace to accompany him for the new year, he was also very surprised. Shi Shaoqin seemed to find something wrong with himself. His eyes darkened. Without saying anything, he turned and walked to the ancient castle "Pull up that sunflower!" Shi Shaoqin explained coldly. "Yes..." Shi Jue Chi frowned slightly, "I think Mo Mo won''t like you like this..." Shi Shaoqin stopped. After pausing, he slowly looked back at Shi Jue Chi, "does she like it or not? What does it have to do with me?" "Shaoqin, no one can refuse the sunshine..." Shi Jue Chi frowned slightly. "Even if Mo Mo is hurt like that, she will collapse," he paused. "But she didn''t hate you." Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes and opened them. "What do you want to say?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice has become cold. Shi Jue Chi smiled, "I want to go to Matterhorn peak for the new year. Will you accompany me?" Chi Jue is obviously dissatisfied with Shi Jue''s cold body "So I invite you..." Shi Jue Chi said naturally. Shi Shaoqin was silent. Finally, he said to the end, "I''ll go with you after I''ve been busy for a while..." after that, he converged his sight and walked steadily to the ancient castle. At last, of course, the sunflower stayed because Shi Shaoqin couldn''t accompany Shi Jue Chi. Just "What''s so important that you can''t spend the new year with me?" Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back and murmured, "Shaoqin, what are you hiding?" "Jue Shao," Kani said, waiting for Shi Shaoqin to enter the castle before coming over. "The itinerary of Qin Shaoqin''s return has not been found." "Where''s Xi City?" Shi juechi didn''t restrain his sight, but there was no figure of Shi Shaoqin at the bottom of his eyes. Carney shook his head, then twisted his eyebrows and asked, "Jue Shao, what do you suspect?" Shi juechi looked at Kani and said nothing. He just walked to the castle ¡­¡­ The next day, Interpol went to Los Angeles to receive Lu Yinping''s return to his nationality. When Lu Yinping was sent to the plane, he looked at the word "Los Angeles" and a touch of venom spilled from the corners of his mouth. Gu Beichen, thank you for coming to see me and solving my doubts... At the same time, it also gives me a chance. Lu Yinping''s mouth was lifted on one side, with a cold smile, which filled the whole body and converged his sight at the same time. After Lu Yinping''s plane took off, Gu Beichen got a report and just answered. Tell Xiao Jing and Susan about the emperor''s follow-up. Gu Beichen plans to spend the new year with Jian Mo and Jian Jie Just like ordinary people, they watch TV, cook and make adequate preparations for the new year. This is Gu Beichen''s first year without grandma Gu, and also the first year with a family For him, the meaning is different. Naturally, it is also different for Jian Mo and Jian Jie. The "buzzing" vibration of the mobile phone came stiffly from his pocket. Gu Beichen took a towel, wiped his hand and took out Seeing Chu Zixiao, he picked it up and put it in his ear. "Where is it?" "At home..." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, who was doing all kinds of balls. "Come to dinner?" "No," Chu Zixiao refused, with a faint wound in his eyes. "If you''re free after dinner, come to heaven night." Gu Beichen frowned imperceptibly, "yourself?" "South, too." Chu Zixiao said in a voice that was neither light nor heavy. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and hung up without saying anything more. "You have something to do..." Jane Mo looked back at Gu Beichen. "I''ll do it with aunt Luo." "Don''t worry..." Gu Beichen joined again. "Zixiao made an appointment to have a drink in the evening." "Oh..." Jane Mo answered and didn''t tangle any more. After so many things, she has completely lost her original palpitation and reluctance to give up on Zixiao. She also hopes that Zixiao can really put down After all, there is no way they can never see such a relationship again. After finishing the balls with Jane Mo and having dinner, Gu Beichen drove to heaven night. I went to the exclusive box of the fourth junior high school in Los Angeles. Chu Zixiao and Lin Xiangnan were there, and the atmosphere was a little dignified. "What?" Gu Beichen frowned lightly. While sitting down on one side, he poured himself a glass of wine and looked at Lin Nannan, "all solved?" No one answered, but the atmosphere became more dignified. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil crossed Chu Zixiao deeply and fell on Lin Nannan "Third brother," Lin Nan said angrily, grinning secretly, "Damn it, I wish I hadn''t solved it." Gu Beichen''s hand holding the wine cup stagnated slightly, and the ink pupil looked at Lin Nan more and more deeply. He didn''t speak, just waiting Chu Zixiao only felt extremely heavy. Looking at Gu Beichen''s temples, he was obviously enduring something. "Yuanda''s account is related to the emperor," Gu Beichen''s low but gentle voice overflowed his thin lips. "The death of Shaochen''s parents is really related to Jian Zhanfeng... Moreover, Jian Zhanfeng''s death was really done by my mother?" Gu Beichen asked. A pair of eagle eyes crossed Lin Nannan fiercely, waiting for his answe Chapter 844 "After I untied the account book to the south, I asked Ye Chenyu to check it." Chu Zixiao''s face was very heavy. "Although what I told you was not completely mild, but..." But what, Chu Zixiao didn''t continue to say, but the meaning was obvious. The atmosphere in the box gradually became repressed. Gu Beichen didn''t speak. He just put the wine glass on the edge of his thin lips. After a pause of two seconds, he poured it all into his mouth The slightly spicy breath stimulates the taste buds, burns the throat and makes people become particularly sober. Lin Nannan and Chu Zixiao both looked at Gu Beichen. Neither of them spoke, as if they were waiting for him to speak. Gu Beichen poured another glass of wine. Under Chu Zixiao''s frown, he looked up and poured it all into his mouth again. The burning pain is stronger than the first cup, which makes people confused, but especially sober. Lin Nan looked at Gu Beichen painfully, "third brother..." He bit his teeth and stood up, stopping Gu Beichen from pouring wine again. "Hasn''t this been fully confirmed yet?" Lin Nan gritted his teeth. "As long as there is a little possibility, we should at least find out. Die," he paused. "Die, don''t we want to die more clearly Chu Zixiao still didn''t speak, but looked at Gu Beichen''s line of sight and realized what pain If If leaving aside his little selfishness, he suddenly felt that Momo and Beichen loved too hard. It seems that God can''t see that two people have a moment of happiness. He always wants to break this beauty "Beichen..." Chu Zixiao shouted, hoarse in his voice. "What he said to the south is not unreasonable. After all, even if his eyes see it, sometimes it may not be true." Gu Beichen''s hand is still captured by Lin Nannan Unlike in the past, now after five years of training in the army, he is known as "Wei Chen, the wolf in the south, and the silver fox in the north". If he doesn''t want Gu Beichen to get the wine again, he still has a way. "I''m all right..." Gu Beichen waited for a while before pressing down the surging emotion in his heart and slowly opened his mouth. In the indifferent voice, there was the usual calmness, but people couldn''t breathe. Lin Nan took off the wine bottle in his hand, looked at Gu Beichen and sat down. After he joined the army, he first went to spy on the special forces that he had stayed in the company for a year. His acumen is what he must have. I don''t know why, he always feels that things are not so simple "Beichen, are you going to..." Chu Zixiao asked with a frown, "what are you going to do?" Gu Beichen leaned slowly on the sofa, and there was a trace of self mockery on his cold, carved face. Sometimes people seem so strong that the world is under your feet. However, occasionally, it will be so small that... What you want to catch is always out of reach. He closed his eyes, but for a moment, Gu Beichen had recovered his indifference. He saw his thin lips gently open, "true or false..." After a pause, he opened his eyes. The eagle''s eyes shot fiercely to the front. His voice was so low that he said slowly, "no matter how painful it is, I want to be with her!" Then he got up, didn''t say anything, and walked out with big steps Chu Zixiao and Lin Xiangnan didn''t stop him, but watched his back disappear in the depths of their eyes. "Don''t let the labor and capital kick the tea table to death," he said Chu Zixiao frowned slightly at Lin Nannan''s soldier ruffian breath. "I don''t know why, I always have a kind of..." he picked up his glass and sipped, "it''s like being led away." Lin turned to the South and looked at Chu Zixiao. His face was gloomy, but he didn''t speak. Does aunt Gu and Jane Zhanfeng''s death have anything to do with it? In fact, they knew it when Uncle Gu and aunt Gu came back. However, if the death of Jian Zhanfeng and Mo Shaochen''s parents is really related, isn''t it forcing the third brother to betray his relatives?! Headache! "I''ll go back first," Lin Nan spit secretly and suddenly remembered something. "Zixiao, won''t you take advantage of it now?" Chu Zixiao raised his eyes and looked south at Shanglin. "What if you want to?" "Paralysis, labor and capital beat you!" Lin suddenly jumped to the south. Chu Zixiao ignored him, but indifferently took back his sight and drank another sip of wine. Chuzixiao sighed deeply and leaned back on the sofa weakly. "To the south, even if I want to take advantage of the weakness, there is no gap for me. Do you understand?" Lin Nan looked at Chu Zixiao. Seriously, he had never seen such Chu Zixiao. In his impression, Chu Zixiao, who has admired his third brother since childhood, has never been negative and inferior, and has his own light "Beichen is a very important person to me," Chu Zixiao looked at Lin Nannan. "Mo Mo is also... I don''t want to make them unhappy because of me." Many things, tangled, negative, and even... Sharp. But these, only to find out in the end, are not enough to compare with the most important people. Whether it is Beichen or Momo, he will only retreat secretly ¡­¡­ The car, with a sharp and crazy roar, roared on the streets of Los Angeles. Along the way, the cars that came to avoid sounded their horns one after another. Gu Beichen''s face remained unchanged, and his handsome face was shrouded in haze and cold. "Squeak -" The screeching sound of brakes passed near the Los Angeles River Bridge, attracting the eyes of people walking and running at night in winter. Gu Beichen is lying on the car seat powerlessly. He can''t go back now He can''t control his emotions like this. How can he make Mo''er feel at ease?! Mo''er''s pressure has been great. She has been trying to adjust her mood. He can''t let himself become her pressure. ¡­¡­ Blues cellar. Mo Shaochen slowly shuttled through the rows of wine racks, his fingers gently across the expensive red wine on them. In the past, some of them liked to come here most. Anyone who found good vintage red wine would throw it here. Occasionally, a few people gathered together, or one person found a wine here, which was a kind of enjoyment. However, things have changed. Many people and many things have become different. Mo Shaochen''s men suddenly gave a meal, then picked up a valandraud and couldn''t help but look deep. "Do you want to have a look at the wine?" said Li Xiaode, laughing. "I want to go to the wine shop." "Do you like valandraud?" Li Xiaoyue rolled his eyes and said without affectation: "are you kidding... Valandraud is so expensive, how can I afford it?" She said, smiling more and more brightly, "I can''t argue, you really look up to me." Mo Shaochen also laughed, but there was no irony. He looked at valandraud in his hand and remembered the unintentional scene so clearly in his mind Li Xiaoyue is not artificial, but such a person full of vitality has experienced so much Mo Shaochen didn''t know how he suddenly thought of her. Even when a wechat message was sent out, he suddenly realized. How are you doing lately? Chapter 845 Jane Mo is watching TV on the sofa because it''s the new year. Whether it''s entertainment or TV programs, she is very happy. "Mommy, don''t you sleep yet?" Jane Jie rubbed her eyes with her little hands and stood sleepy on the stairs. Jane Mo looked up and looked at the time again. It was almost eleven o''clock. "Your father is coming back soon. I''ll wait for him." "Oh..." Jane Jie answered and said softly, "Mommy, good night!" "Well, good night!" Jian Jie turned around and went back to his bedroom. After going to bed, he took his cell phone and sent a text message to Gu Beichen: Daddy, Mommy is waiting for you! Gu Beichen''s mobile phone vibrated, picked it up and opened it. Looking at Jian Jie''s text message, his heart was distressed and warm. Daddy, right back! After Jian Jie saw the reply, he was too sleepy to hold on and closed his eyes Gu Beichen cleaned up his mood, restarted the car and drove to the mid level villa When I get home, I can still see the little woman on the sofa from the outside. Slightly frowning, Gu Beichen looked at the empty villa and suddenly thought... Is it too big here? In fact, ordinary people''s apartments, like runzeyuan, are also very good. Exquisite, will not appear so lonely The light sound of opening the door came, and Jane looked at the door Seeing Gu Beichen, his expressionless face gradually waved a gentle smile, "you''re back..." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and changed his shoes and walked to Jian Mo, "Why are you still watching TV?" "Thinking you won''t be too late, I''ll wait for you..." Jian Mo''s voice was soft and waxy. Gu Beichen leaned over, picked up Jian Mo directly and walked upstairs, "if they pull me to drink two more drinks to the south, will you wait all the time?" Hearing that he was dissatisfied, Jane Mo put her arm around Gu Beichen''s neck and kissed him on his face, "I won''t... I''ll be sleepy, okay?" In the voice of jiaochen, there is miss in the bath. Gu Beichen has something hidden in his heart. Naturally, he can''t stand the miss of Jian mo After entering the bedroom, the two people rolled into bed crazily. Kiss, passion like fire, miss each other, as if you can''t stay for a moment, just want to have each other. At the last excitement, Gu Beichen whispered in Jian Mo''s ear: "Mo''er, no matter what happens, never leave me..." Jian Moqing went to the depths and didn''t hear what Gu Beichen said clearly. He just made an instinctive "um" sound. Then, with his sprint, he reached the peak. At night, intoxicated by the flashiness of Los Angeles. The setting sun in the ink palace, however, just lazily falls on the sea, sparkling. Sunflowers are less listless because of the sun. However, people working in the ink palace always take a look at them unconsciously from a distance Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window of his study. There were no closed curtains, and the setting sun came in obliquely He looked at the swaying sunflowers with deep eyes. There was a touch of complex emotion on his beautiful face. "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." Awei pushed the door and came in. When he saw the light all over the room, he was stunned in his eyes. However, such emotions are only a moment, and they quickly converge. "Qin Shao, it has been handled." Awei said. Shi Shaoqin didn''t move, but answered faintly, "that''s the rationing in Southeast Asia... In addition, contact General Jin Sanjiao ahan, and I''ll increase my share by 20% next year." "I''m afraid... It''s not easy." Awei said hard. Now the share occupied by Mo palace has agitated the black market. If you increase it by 20%, I''m afraid it''s difficult for Jin Sanjiao. Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes, turned around and said faintly, "increase by 20%. I can give him more than 30% of the arms at a price lower than 20% of the market price!" "..." awei widened his eyes. Jin Sanjiao is badly beaten by several sides, and the lack is arms However, in such a large volume, few can provide it like Mo palace. This is why even if the harvest is bad, the share of Mo palace will never be less. "What''s the problem?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was cold. "No, I''ll do it now..." awei shook his head and turned away from the study. Shi Shaoqin turned around again, and his sight fell on the sunflower again He stood like this until the sunset completely disappeared on the sea level and the stars scattered in the ink sky. The mobile phone was buzzing on the desk. After a while, Shi Shaoqin turned to answer the phone. "Is what Qin Shao sent true?" General ahan asked in English. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were slightly deep. "Question my words?" "Ha ha, don''t dare..." general ahan laughed twice. "Mo palace is so sincere and we have cooperated for so many years. Since Qin Shao mentioned so, how can I give you the 20% more share next year." "The general makes a list. I''ll arrange the extra 30% of the goods next month at the latest." "Qin Shao''s cheerfulness has always been my favorite..." general ahan smiled sincerely, "but... Mo palace is not afraid to make people jealous." "Only those who stand at the top are qualified to make people jealous..." Shi Shaoqin sneered, "goodbye!" After hanging up the phone, Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes had narrowed. He turned and left the study. "Qin Shao!" Awei walked up and said, "is it settled?" "Let''s go," said Shi Shaoqin, walking to the restaurant with a pocket in one hand. "Those who quit Gu Yan''s safflower list can get ten kilograms of goods from Mo Palace at a price 30% lower than the market price!" As soon as awei heard this, he immediately stopped, opened and closed his mouth... Looking at the back of Shi Shaoqin who kept walking for a long time. "Qin Shao..." awei reacted and hurried to catch up, "it''s too much!" 30% lower, plus the profit transfer on the arms side, it''s a price difference of tens of millions per minute. Moreover, the share of Mo palace will account for more than 20% next year. It can be said that the price gap can not be estimated Thinking of this, awei twitched at the corners of his mouth. Qin Shao won''t ask for 20% more goods, just to protect Gu Beichen''s children?! Shi Shaoqin stopped at the entrance of the stairs. The scene of Jian Mo falling down the stairs immediately crossed the fundus of his eyes and a needle into his heart. "That also depends on how many people dare to come and get..." Shi Shaoqin coldly dropped a sentence and turned down the stairs. He just wants to tell those people who are still ready to move, Gu Yan... No, Jian Jie, his Mo palace, Baoding! Chi Qin sat there and ate less. A touch of guilt crossed his eyes, and Shi Shaoqin sat down opposite indifferently. All the chefs have been changed. It should be said that after that, the ink palace cleaned up One night, no one knows whether the blood stained the ink palace or the cold heart. "When are you leaving?" Shi juechi asked after being silent for a while. Shi Shaoqin looked up at him and waited for him to continue. "I want to leave with you," said Shi juechi, with a calm and gentle voice. "It''s a little lonely to spend the new year alone in Mo palace." Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes slightly, "Jue Chi, what do you want to know?" He put down his knife and fork, took the water and drank. "Although we are fraternal twins," Shi juechi''s voice is still calm, "but, Shaoqin, I know you." He paused. "I suddenly thought again... What would it be if Mo Mo''s child didn''t die?" Then he stared at Shi Shaoqin deeply and didn''t let go of any of his expressions. Chapter 846 Unfortunately, Shi Shaoqin didn''t change his face from beginning to end. He didn''t even have a trace of emotion. "What was that?" Shi Shaoqin asked. Shi juechi chuckled, as if annoyed, "Shaoqin, I''m asking you..." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered faintly and looked down as if he were thinking. After a while, Shi Shaoqin raised his eyes and looked at Shi juechi. There was a dark and slow look in his eyes and said, "maybe I can''t see that Beichen is too happy. I can''t help but want to find some unhappiness for him!" Shi Jue Chi immediately frowned, "Shaoqin!" "I couldn''t see him happy, could I?" Shi Shaoqin said with a smile, but that smile was frozen in the corners of his mouth and never spread. Shi juechi''s eyebrows tightened more, as if he regretted asking such a question, "you won''t!" "Who knows?" Shi Shaoqin asked softly, and his eyebrows were frivolous. "I''ve never been a good person, haven''t I?" "No!" Shi juechi answered quickly, but his voice was slow and firm. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were deep and bottomless. It seemed that he hated his answer. After a moment of silence, he slowly raised one corner of his mouth, overflowing with a treacherous smile, "Jue Chi, you actually want to ask me..." Shi Shaoqin deliberately paused. "Is it Jian Mo''s child? In fact, he didn''t die, but I hid it?" Light Yi''s voice has indifference under indifference. "Is that true?" Shi juechi asked along with the words. Shi Shaoqin chuckled, "Jue Chi, he left..." Then he picked up his knife and fork and continued to eat gracefully. It seems that life is worth mentioning, no matter who. Shi juechi''s eyes were wide open. He looked at Shi Shaoqin, who was so indifferent, and suddenly didn''t know what he was tangled with or expected "I''m finished. Take your time." Shi juechi got up and walked out Xu was too lost. He didn''t care. Shi Shaoqin said "left", not dead! Shi Shaoqin cut a small lamb row into his mouth and chewed it slowly Momo''s child left. Now, Xiaoyan is not Xiaoyan, is she?! Shi Shaoqin thought, and the bottom of his eyes gradually became gentle. Such tenderness was filled with a smile... But he didn''t know it. Time, what has passed, what has precipitated Can''t put it down, or can it be firm, as if sometimes it''s not whether you want it or not, but the little obsession in your heart. ''whoosh -'' "Pa!" "So beautiful..." J sat on the steps and looked at the fireworks blooming in the ink sky. His childish face was filled with a smile. Jian Jie sat down on his side, holding his chin with petals in his small hand, and looked at it with a smile. "Daddy''s specially customized fireworks... Of course they look good." As a freshman and a kid, he enjoyed watching. Not far away, beside the English seats with cushions and electric heating, Gu Beichen was flipping the food on the barbecue. Jane Mo was wrapped warm and strung with aunt Luo, aunt LAN and several servants. Xiao Jing was setting off fireworks. He ordered one, looked at Gu Beichen, and then looked at J and Jian Jie. He was disgusted. Paralyzed, he does "coolie" alone with wool?! Thinking, he went on to order the next His family is enjoying it. He is going to the fireworks factory to customize fireworks, deliver them, and put them on the evening of new year''s Eve Xiao Jing felt that there was no president in the world to help him. I beat hooligans outside, set the economy in the company, and become an all-round housekeeper and servant in the boss''s house Tut Tut, he thought he could go to the advanced deacon exam and take a card exam. Thinking like this, Xiao Jing happily lit fireworks there. Behind him, J, a big boy, praised the exaggerated voice. Hey, there''s no way. Who made us J special? We didn''t have a childhood?! "Little uncle, little aunt..." Suddenly, excited, a happy voice came. When everyone turned around and looked, Luo Xiaomi got off her little sheep and ran over "Eh, Xiaomi, why are you here?" Xiao Jing asked. Unfortunately, Luo Xiaomi ignored him directly and went straight to Jian mo. Xiao Jing stood there with a hard face and was severely hit by 10000 points "Xiao Jing, I beg you now." Susan said mockingly, holding a bunch of freshly baked ham sausage in her hand. The baby''s heart is bitter, just don''t say But he is suffering without anyone to accompany him, which is not Xiao Jing''s style. Seeing that Susan just put the ham sausage in her mouth, Xiao Jing said in an evil spirit: "why, can''t you really eat it, lonely and cold, replace it with a fake?" "..." Susan was stunned. When Xiao Jing went to light the next fireworks with a bad smile, she suddenly reacted. "Xiao Jing, are you tired of living..." Susan yelled and wanted to beat Xiao Jing with ham sausage. Xiao Jing laughed with "ha ha ha", hiding and lighting fireworks at the same time. However, after a while, he found tragically that J and Jianjie joined Susan''s camp. He was a little embarrassed because he ignored the left and the right. "Why are you here?" Jian Mo looked at the slapstick people and asked Luo Xiaomi with a smile on her face. "I came here first. My father and mother will come right away..." Luo Xiaomi rubbed against Jian Mo and groaned around her arm. "Little aunt, I want to eat scallops." "I''ll bake it for you..." Gu Beichen listened and turned to get the scallops. "Don''t..." Luo Xiaomi wrinkled his nose. "I just want to eat what my aunt baked." "Miss Luo, how old are you? You''re still flirting with the young lady..." aunt Luo asked with a smile. "No matter how old I am, I''m just a child with my little uncle and aunt!" Luo Xiaomi looked like I was very reasonable. "And, uncle, don''t forget to give me lucky money. I''ll give you double this year!" Then he looked at Jane Mo with a flattering face. Jane morhu smiled, and the smile on her face intoxicated Gu Beichen''s eyes. "Hmm..." Gu Beichen answered softly. His deep ink pupil stared at Jian Mo, and his thin lips couldn''t help smiling. Luo Xiaomi showed a good face. She knew that as long as she coaxed her little aunt to be happy, her little uncle could agree to any conditions. Hey, hey It seems that we can also mention the Chinese New Year and Emperor Entertainment cooperation projects later, ha ha! Luo Xiaomi happily roasted food with Jian Mo, one after another. The originally deserted mid mountain villa was crowded with a group of people soon. Chu Zixiao came with Chu tianqin and Gu Ci, followed by Gu Nanyi and his wife. Gu Yuan didn''t come back because her son and husband were in the army. She also went to the army to celebrate the new year with two people. The cars of their two families have just stopped, and another car has also turned into the villa "It''s really lively today." Aunt Luo sighed from her heart. In the past, whenever you were in Los Angeles, you had to take care of grandma''s villa... This mid mountain villa was always empty. Grandma Gu is gone this year. It''s lively here. Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen. With a slight worry in Gu Ci''s heart, he smiled and said to Jian Mo, "Happy New Year..." he paused, "I''m glad to have you in Gu''s New Year!" Whether it''s relief or something, it doesn''t seem so important at this moment Chu Zixiao thought that if Beichen and Momo can be happy, he is willing to quit completely... Only wish that they will not endure the wind and rain again. Chapter 847 "Thank you..." Jian Mo smiled and looked up at Chu Zixiao and felt his relief. At that moment, she had never been relaxed. Gu CI eased his mind a little and looked at Chu tianqin around him. He also slowly put down the grudge against Jian mo. "I''ll wash my hands and do it together..." Gu CI said with a smile. He went to the villa, washed his hands and found an apron. When she came out, Mo Shaochen came "Would you mind adding me?" Mo Shaochen joked lightly. Naturally, there was a sound of laughing and scolding. Looking at a circle of frolics, except Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi, who are still roaming the world, they are basically here. "I''m sorry for you..." Gu Beichen smiled at the corner of his mouth and glanced at the paper bag in his hand. "Red wine," Mo Shaochen said with a smile, "just went to the blues first." He put down the red wine, said hello to everyone and looked at Jian Mo, "there''s a gift for you..." Jane Mo slightly raised her eyebrows, obviously surprised. "Little uncle, just have the gift of little aunt, don''t have ours?" Luo Xiaomi quit immediately, and his eyes gestured to Jian Jie to coax together. Unfortunately, the proud little male god ignored her at all, and Luo Xiaomi showed his teeth angrily. "If only you had a red envelope, what gift would you like?" Gu Nanyi didn''t give his daughter face directly. "Didn''t you say that there''s no money for any gifts?" Gu Nanyi doesn''t understand. They''re not short of money. Why did they get into the hole of money when they had a daughter? Luo Xiaomi was ridiculed by his mother and immediately embarrassed. After hearing everyone''s laughter, he simply curled his lips, "I love money... Hum!" She muttered proudly, "in the future, I have to find a husband who is richer than my little uncle!" "Tut Tut, it''s estimated that you can''t get married..." J said seriously, "unless..." After thinking about it, J didn''t continue to say, but he was not afraid to die and made a face with Luo Xiaomi. Qin Shao won''t like a little boy like Luo Xiaomi. He wants a chest without a chest and an ass without a butt. The children were making noise on one side, and the adults were curious about what gift Mo Shaochen gave Jane mo Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and there was a deep insight into everything in the depths of the ink pupil. Mo Shaochen took out his mobile phone, made a few moves and handed it to Jian mo Jane Mo looked at him suspiciously, then took the mobile phone and lowered her eyes... When she saw the content displayed above, her nose suddenly sour and her eyes turned red. Once again, he raised his eyes and looked at Mo Shaochen. The dense water mist at the bottom of his eyes was not sadness, but questions under excitement, waiting for confirmation. "I just came out before I came..." Mo Shaochen said with a smile, "she did it!" Jane Mo smiled, gently sucked her nose, nodded, and hung her eyes again The screen of the mobile phone was dark. She opened it and saw a document approved by an international lawyer with Li Xiaoyue''s name and her bright smile on it. "This will not be announced until next Friday," Mo Shaochen said. "So I''m afraid I can''t tell you the good news until that time..." "Shaochen, this is the best New Year gift." Jian Mo handed Mo Shaochen his mobile phone and calculated the time. "However, there are still ten days left, which is a little difficult..." She was half joking. In that way, she was happy that Li Xiaoyue finally stood up and took half a year to get an international lawyer''s certificate. "Girl, in this world, there are no obstacles to get through..." In my mind, Li Xiaoyue''s confident appearance seemed to echo. Jian Mo looks at Jian Jie, who is fighting with J and Luo Xiaomi. She is a little sour in her heart However, when she finally met Gu Beichen, she felt that she should not indulge in what Xiaoyan had left Xiao Yan''s departure made her sad. She was no better. It''s not meant to give them more negative energy if they don''t stop working hard. "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen came forward, his warm finger belly gently crossed Jian Mo''s cheek, frowned in time, "a little cold..." Jane Mo smiled and shook her head. "I wear so much and have electric heating. It''s not cold..." she said. Seeing that the sight of the left and right people is not here, she quickly kissed Gu Beichen, "thank you!" "Thanks?" Gu Beichen frowned. Jian Mo glanced, "Shaochen should not have the ability to invade the system without publishing the results?!" Yes, yes. Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a faint radian, "well, indeed!" "You use J very smoothly now..." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "What did you promise him?" Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo and sat down at the electric heater. With deep eyes, he said, "well, after going to the amusement park, take him to the ocean park by the way..." "..." Jane Mo''s mouth was uncontrollable and pulled, "you wanted to take them and ask for something by the way." Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo on his forehead whether anyone looked at them or not. "Children sometimes need a little trick. Such happiness will double!" Luo Xiaochen looked at them and smiled on their shoulders "Huh?" "It''s nice to marry you," said Jane Mo with a smile. " Gu Beichen smiled at the corners of his mouth, "Hmm!" "..." Jian Mo agreed with Gu Beichen, got up and pushed him, "it seems that I haven''t eaten in the evening." "What does the wife want to eat? The husband roasts it himself..." Gu Beichen picked his eyebrow. "Cooking is not good. Barbecue is still OK." Jane Mo smiled more and more tenderly, and her eyes just swept to the ham sausage aunt LAN had just put on, "that''s good..." Gu Beichen looked and sighed, "what are you suggesting?" Xu was very ambiguous at the beginning of the two people, and the process was very harmonious. Gu Beichen''s words fell, and Jian Mo immediately blushed, "roll... It''s not serious!" "I''m not serious about my wife..." Gu Beichen said in Jian Mo''s ear in a low and hoarse voice, and then went to get Jian Mo something to eat with a bad smile. "Little aunt..." Luo Xiaomi jumped to the front. "Huh?" "If I can''t find my husband in the future, I have to blame you..." Jane Mo was stunned and asked with a smile, "why?" "Because my little uncle is so kind to you," Luo Xiaomi circled Jian Mo, "I can''t find a husband by this standard!" "Everyone''s happiness is different," Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "When you meet your half, you will understand." "Really?" "Of course!" Jane Mo said firmly. The courtyard of the villa is filled with the laughter of the lunar new year. Leave the old and welcome the new, even if... The reunion year is not a reunion. Outside the villa, there is no light in the dark There was a figure hidden behind the big tree. He looked at the figures gathered in the villa gloomily, and put a sinister mark on the corners of his mouth. "Gu Beichen, you forced me to a desperate situation..." Gu murmured in a cold voice floating in the darkness, "I can''t make you comfortable!" Chapter 848 New York, USA. The morning sunshine is blooming, and the Chinatown has long been covered with red lanterns. Early in the morning, with the sound of firecrackers, all businesses are pasted with jubilant couplets. For the new century, which is getting weaker and weaker now, being in Chinatown has a more atmosphere than in China. As soon as Shi Shaoqin got off the plane and got on the bus, he received a text message from Shi juechi. Juechi: Shaoqin, your wandering whereabouts really make me doubt Shi Shaoqin replied to the text message indifferently: after so many years in Mo palace, why can''t you just track my whereabouts? Shi juechi looked at the reply message and had a headache: are you intentional? Shi Shaoqin: otherwise?! Shi juechi didn''t reply any more. He just stood outside the Paris airport and had a headache "Jue Shao," Carney played with something in his hand, "I said. Qin Shao, listen, you won''t go with him. You must count on you to follow him." Shi Jue Chi looked sideways at Carney. "I''m just surprised that he did this. Why?" "No matter why," Carney shrugged, "Jane Mo''s child can''t be alive anyway." "Chi Jue''s face was heavy. Carney said without any eyesight: "in fact, the child''s life body is so weak that it''s almost impossible to survive..." paused. "Moreover, many of us have seen that the child was buried." Shi juechi''s eyebrows have tightened, and his heart is a little uncomfortable. He converged his sight and sighed deeply: "Kani, Gu Beichen, although for some reasons, it doesn''t have anything to do with Shaoqin, I''m afraid that one day, it will still become the fuse." "No?!" Carney raised his eyebrows. "The red flower list is so high, but Qin Shao is trying to protect Jian Jie... How do I think, what agreement has been reached between Qin Shao and Gu Beichen?!" Shi juechi didn''t speak, but she always had an unspeakable feeling in her heart He and Shaoqin are fraternal twins, but telepathy still exists. "Jue Shao, I think..." Carney stopped his action. "Anyway, in fact, no one can intervene in qinshao''s affairs... Isn''t it good now instead of stopping or finding out what?" Although I don''t know what happened in the past, in the Mo palace, it''s definitely not brain disability who can reach Carney''s position. Why should Gu Beichen deal with Luo Songxian? Why should Qin Shao bear Jianmo again and again? In fact, I couldn''t figure it out at first. Later, when the whole thing was connected in series, I could still understand Of course, this understanding can only rot in the stomach, a word, or even a little performance... Otherwise, it will be hard to live with yourself! "Maybe you''re right..." Shi Jue Chi lowered her eyes and smiled at herself. "I shouldn''t be so harsh to Shaoqin." No matter what he thought or not, Shaoqin has been trying to come out. Why did he cut off that thought? People are selfish, and he doesn''t have boundless love... Shaoqin has done well. "Let''s go..." Shi juechi sighed. Carney raised his eyebrows. "Where are you going?" "Chinese new year, of course, to Chinatown..." Shi Jue Chi Wenrun smiled, "well, you can have a hot pot." "..." Carney twitched at the corner of his mouth. "Can I not eat it?" "Yes..." Shi Jue Chi looked at Kani with a relaxed face. "However, it''s too lonely to eat alone in the new year. You have to accompany me. Well, if you don''t eat, you can watch me eat..." "..." Carney twitched at his temples, "it''s inhuman!" Shi juechi laughed, stopped the car and went to Chinatown with Carney ¡­¡­ When Shi Shaoqin''s car stopped at the hospital, he saw Xi Cheng holding a red lantern and looking for a place to hang it. He frowned slightly, looked at the architectural style, and then looked at the red lanterns in Xi Cheng''s hand. Suddenly he felt a little strange After getting out of the car, Shi Shaoqin walked inside without saying anything. "Eh, Qin Shao..." Xi Cheng looked at Shi Shaoqin in surprise. "When did you come back?" "Just now." Shi Shaoqin said coldly, and the man had stepped into the hospital. Xi Cheng shrugged and continued to look for a place to hang lanterns. Shi Shaoqin is in New York. Now he doesn''t live in a hotel or buy a house. Instead, he habitually lives in Xicheng Pharmaceutical Research Institute... That''s the biggest reason why Shi juechi couldn''t find his place in the end. Shi Shaoqin, who has always been demanding on food, housing and transportation, never expected to live in the Institute of medicine! Now the drug research institute has been connected with Meno''s Hospital, or... After Xi Cheng finished here, he has bought Meno''s hospital. It can be said that most of the medical staff in that hospital now serve Xiao Yan alone. Shi Shaoqin went to see the little guy first. Like when he left, he didn''t get any better or worse. After staying in the insulation room for a while, Shi Shaoqin left. Some thorny problems still need to be solved Gold Three Jiao''s goods account for 20% more. Even those who withdraw from the red flower list can buy at a low price... He disrupts the market. Naturally, the rules are slowly changing in the dark world. Many people dare to be angry but dare not speak. In the end, the Mo palace involves too many aspects. Who do you really want to deal with... No one wants to follow the old path of the Chen family. Time is slowly passing. When Shi Shaoqin handled everything, it was time for the lights to shine in New York. Although it is the Chinese new year, due to Chinese and some reasons, some Chinese New Year signs can even be seen on the streets of New York "Qin Shao, Meno and I are going out." Xi Cheng said coyly when he saw Shi Shaoqin coming out of the temporary office. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were slightly deep. "You all leave. Where is he?" This'' he ''refers to the little guy. Everyone knows it. Xi Cheng looked confident, "don''t worry, there must be no accident tonight..." With a swish, his fierce eyes, like a sharp blade, rowed towards Xi City. Xi Cheng swallowed involuntarily, grinned and said numbly, "I, I don''t mean that... I mean, we don''t go far." Shi Shaoqin coldly withdrew his sight, ignored Xi Cheng and went to the insulation room "Qin Shao?!" Frown. "If anything happens to him, I''ll kill you first." The cold voice came, Xi Cheng only felt that he was m physique, special... Shi Shaoqin did this to him, and he followed him with determination. Alas, who makes people rich? What research he wants to do, he never asks how much money he needs, and he doesn''t care how much money he needs! Shi Shaoqin ignored Xi Cheng''s thoughts... Naturally, he would not stop or do anything about what was fishy between Xi Cheng and Meno. What he wants is that the little guy can survive, otherwise... None of them will be good! A cold light flashed across his eyelids. Shi Shaoqin pushed open the door of the insulation room. What caught his eyes was the little guy in the insulation box. In an instant, he softened his whole sight Chapter 849 Jue Chi said that no matter how hard the heart is, there is a softness. The corner of Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful mouth raised a faint radian. The smile was very light, but it spread in the fundus of his eyes. "I''ve done so much for Gu Yan," said Shi Shaoqin, looking at the little guy in the incubator. "The business of Mo palace is too bad." In the quiet space, Shi Shaoqin''s words fell, waiting for silence. Slender jade like fingers gently crossed the incubator, and Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed gently, overflowing with deep light. "Gu Yan, it''s not Gu Yan anymore..." Shi Shaoqin said softly, "this year, I''ll accompany you. Today is your rebirth day, okay?" There was still no voice to answer him, but Shi Shaoqin''s handsome facial lines had become soft and soft. His fingers gently crossed the white, looking like soft "cheeks". Shi Shaoqin''s sight became deeper and deeper, just like a vortex. "What shall I call you?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, and his voice was so faint that he could hardly hear it. After a long time, the voice overflowed the beautiful lips again, "just call you star... Well, that''s all." Everyone has his own star. Even if the light is weak, he can guide himself Warm words reverberate in my ears through the night wind. Such a night has never been relaxed after changes. Shi Shaoqin stared at Star deeply, and the tenderness in the bottom of his eyes became more and more diffuse. It was actually the feeling of tenderness for the whole years. The corners of his mouth don''t overflow his own faint smile. Such a smile is matched with his beautiful handsome face One day, in the eyes of a woman, she just felt that if the man smiled so gently, it would really make all women crazy and fall in love with it. It''s just a pity that with such a smile, he only gave a star who was dedicated to working against him and made him helpless! ¡­¡­ "Chen Shao, madam Shao, happy New Year..." aunt Luo put breakfast on the table. "Young master Jie, young master J, happy New Year!" "Happy new year, aunt Luo..." Everyone said new year''s greetings to each other, and everyone''s face was filled with a smile. The happiest people here are Jian Jie and J. one is the first time to celebrate the new year with their parents, and the other is the first time to feel the atmosphere at home After breakfast, Gu Beichen''s family of four, well, now J has almost become a member of Gu''s family. Although no one said it, no one regarded him as an outsider. The family of four first went to grandma Gu''s villa to pay homage to Grandpa Gu and grandma Gu, and then went to the cemetery to see Jane Zhanfeng and Su mo. Sometimes fate is so strange. Xiao Yan''s leaving and J''s joining... It seems that it will always compensate you after you lose. Even that kind of compensation is just a drop in the bucket. Four people stood in front of the tombstone. Gu Beichen held Jian Mo''s shoulder. J and Xiaojie stood next to each other, quietly looking at the photos on the tombstone. No one spoke. However, in everyone''s heart, there are thousands of thoughts. Jian Jie flashed his thick eyelashes, and his mouth burst: Grandpa and grandma, I''m Xiao Yan and Xiao Jie... I''ll love Mommy very much, and you should be good, too. J''s idea is much simpler: Well, Jian Mo is very insightful, Gu Beichen is pretty good Jane Mo''s thoughts are complex, but empty. The experience with Gu Beichen last year seems to be longer than her life Dad, mom... There are some things I don''t want to delve into, because I don''t want to give my life too much sadness. I love him, I want to live with him, hand in hand with sunrise and sunset... Will you blame me? Xiao Yan''s departure made my life worse than death. Even if I tried hard not to blame myself and be sad, it was me and his child, a child who survived so much But in the end, he left me! Dad, mom, my sadness, ah Chen feels it... My happiness, you can feel it too, can''t you? She was unable to stop all the past and the grievances of the previous generation. However, she can work hard to be happy... Even if she needs to bear anything. Gu Beichen seemed to feel Jian Mo''s thoughts and held her shoulder tightly. Jian Mo tilted his head and looked up at Gu Beichen''s good-looking sight. The two were stuck together, speechless to each other, but better than a thousand words "Let''s go," Gu Beichen said softly. "I have to go to Su''s house for lunch." Jian Mo smiled and nodded, and the four walked out of the cemetery together The sunshine alone lengthened the figure of four people. Gu Beichen glanced at the picture on the tombstone and calmly took back his sight. Jian Heng''s life, or you... Have borne it, you are not afraid to bear more. Sorry, Jane Mo, I won''t let go in my life... Even if it''s painful, I''ll always be with her. ¡­¡­ "Grandpa, happy New Year..." when Jian Jie saw Su Zhenqi, he was tired of selling cute. Old man Su smiled with Jian Jie in his arms. The red light and joy on his face provoked the dissatisfaction of his great grandchildren. Su Jun knew clearly that grandpa was putting Xiaojie''s joy on him... Well, put pressure on him. In his generation, he hasn''t landed yet. After two months in Los Angeles, j is not as independent as before. Soon, he integrates with the Su family The most important thing is that the children are curious about computers one by one, but he is an expert in this field. It can be imagined... After a while, he received a lot of admiration and admiration. Lunch was so enjoyable that even Lu Hanyu, who had a distance from Su Anyuan, came back to have dinner together. It was because of a simple foam that brought the relationship between the two people closer. "Listen to Junli, are you going to the beach tomorrow?" Lu Hanyu holds dishes for Xiaojie and j and asks Jian Mo with a smile. "Mm-hmm!" J can''t wait to answer the voice. The light in his eyes is very excited. Jian Mo glanced at Gu Beichen, "well, there''s nothing to do for the new year. Ah Chen is not too busy, so he took Xiao Jie and j to play there..." "The beach is warmer than here, but it''s too wet," Su Zhenqi said with concern. "Don''t be careless." "I know, grandpa!" Jane answered. At the dinner table, everyone chatted from place to place. Because of the atmosphere of the new year, they were always much happier. And on such a happy day, there are always some lonely people, because of the festive atmosphere, they seem more and more lonely. Ye Chenyu nestled in the lazy sofa with his feet on the tea table... Beer cans are scattered everywhere. Someone pushed the door and came in. Listening to his voice, he said lazily, "don''t take cases for the new year..." "Why, drunk and dreaming?" A low and sneering voice came. At the right time, someone sat down opposite Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu looked at the man facing the military cap opposite and frowned slightly. Someone put the file bag in front of Ye Chenyu. "You checked the things in those years this time... Now, do you believe what I said?" His voice was slightly provocative and sullen. "If it weren''t for Jane Zhanfeng, nothing would have happened!" Chapter 850 Ye Chenyu just glanced at the file bag thrown on the tea table, looking a little lazy and evil, and the corners of his mouth pulled a cold but gloomy radian. "What do you want me to do?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyes and looked at the person opposite. His voice was a little cold. "What do I want you to do?" The man sneered, "why don''t you ask yourself what you want to do?" Ye Chenyu frowned lightly, and then spread his sword eyebrows. It was his evil charm of fooling around. "If it hadn''t been for Jane Zhanfeng, it shouldn''t be like this now, shouldn''t it?" The man said indifferently, "at first, your father and Cen Yulan had negotiated a divorce. If it weren''t for Jian Zhanfeng, your father wouldn''t have died in that car accident with Cen Yulan... And your mother wouldn''t have to live in pain!" Ye Chenyu frowned slightly, and his heart was mixed with a sense of hostility It seems that the original scene solidified in my mind. "Think about your mother''s pain for so many years..." the man''s voice seemed helpless. "You obviously can have a happy family. Your mother endured it for so many years. When she saw that happiness was readily available, she could only watch the passage..." Ye Chenyu closed his eyes as if he were precipitating this pain and resisting it. "Since your father left," the man said with a slight raise of his head and cold eyes under the brim of his hat, "have you ever seen your mother smile?" Ye Chenyu frowned more tightly, but he still didn''t speak... I don''t know whether it was too tired or the smell of wine. The man said slowly with a light sniff in his mouth: "can you feel the feeling of... ''I haven''t laughed since you died'' "Can you stop?" Ye Chenyu twisted his eyebrows and opened his eyes. A pair of slightly drunk and sullen eyes looked at the person opposite with dissatisfaction. "I know what''s going on with my mother, and I know what I''m going to do..." Ye Chenyu said irritably, "do you want people to be clean during the Chinese new year?" The man smiled, his eyes drooped slightly, "see for yourself..." He got up and looked at Ye Chenyu with his hand on his forehead. "You want to know the truth, so you took advantage of the previous cooperative relationship with Chu Zixiao to participate in this investigation... In fact, you''re right. You know what you want to do." He looked back and looked out. "Have a good new year... By the way, what do you want to do?" Then, the man left the detective agency and got into a closed box pickup truck for express delivery outside. After starting the car, he looked in the rearview mirror and could see the small window of the container. Then he took the earphone connected to the walkie talkie and stuffed it into his ear "It seems that ye Chenyu hesitates..." said the driver. Gu muhuai was silent for a while, and then came a sneer. "If he didn''t tangle, he wouldn''t have dragged on for so many years." "How do you do that?" The driver raised his eyebrows. "It seems that he wants to get some water out. It''s not easy." "I didn''t count on him..." I smiled silently. The driver seemed dissatisfied, "then you say..." "What''s the hurry?" Gu mohuai interrupted the driver, "Gu Beichen''s goal now is me. Even if his people find anything, they will only start to pay attention to Ye Chenyu or his mother..." While listening, the driver drove the car and couldn''t see anything unusual. "As long as you listen to me, I will let you as usual..." "Good!" The driver clenched his hand on the steering wheel with force. This time, he also replied with a particularly gnashing of teeth. Gu mohuai sat on the folding stool in the container, turned his head, looked at the driver from the small window, and a sneer came out of the corners of his mouth It''s impossible to make a comeback, then we''ll both lose! I''d like to see how many hands and eyes you have Gu mohuai took back his sight and suddenly thanked grandma Gu for adopting him. Even, because of his parents, he was thrown into the army for two years. If it weren''t for those two years, how could he do all this so perfectly? The account book of military password, the death of Mo Huai and Cen Yulan, and the "accidental" death of Jian Zhanfeng Even, the current cover up is used to avoid Gu Beichen and the Dragon owl. ha-ha! Gu mohuai''s eyes darkened to the point where he felt like falling into hell, with a burning Yin Fire... Such a fire seemed to want to destroy everything! ¡­¡­ "Jian Mo, Jian mo..." J looked at the suitcase in front of him, his face wrinkled together, and then looked at Jian Mo walking downstairs. Jane Mo came over and was scared to death by the sight in front of her. "What are you doing with so many things?" With that, she squatted down and began to pick up the clothes and some sundries that were not folded at all and threw randomly into the suitcase. "We don''t live often," Jane Mo rolled her eyes silently. "Just go for a few days. You don''t need to make it the same as moving?" She sighed, "besides, if you need anything, just go and buy it." "But didn''t you say let me pack up and go directly to the airport tomorrow morning?" J looked confused and forced. Seeing that Jane Mo was speechless, he immediately shook his clothes angrily, "Qin Shao and I went out without anything. How do I know what to bring?" Indeed, even if he came to Los Angeles, J didn''t bring anything except a card and him. "When I say clean up, I mean to bring some necessities..." Jane Mo gets up and looks at J funny. "For example, your toiletries or something." J ignored Jane Mo and angrily went to the sofa to sit down. He didn''t know what to mumble. Jane Mo smiled, shook her head as if she were helpless and said, "OK, can I clean up for you?" "Hum!" J hummed in his nose, but it was obvious that his eyes were secretly aiming at Jane Mo''s packing, and the corners of his mouth also grinned. "Lack of love!" Jane Jie skimmed over to J. "I packed all my luggage myself." "That''s because you don''t know how to enjoy..." J said as if he knew very well, but it was obvious that there was a touch of injury in the fundus of his eyes. Xiaojie has a mother like Jian Mo and a father like Gu Beichen. It''s so happy In his memory, his father only drinks and then comes back to beat people, and her mother only goes crazy... It seems that he is the redundant one. Indeed, he is redundant Feeling that J was filled with sadness, Jian Jie turned his mouth and deliberately said, "I don''t know how to enjoy it? Obviously, Mommy thinks my mouth is poisonous, so she wants to be independent of me!" J looked at Jian Jie and listened to him solemnly say: "I found... Mommy probably thinks you support her and are in the same camp with her, so it''s better for you than me!" J listened, his eyes lit up, immediately raised the corners of his mouth and said proudly, "that''s right, I''m with Jane mo..." With that, he looked back at Jian Mo, who was packing his things for him. The smile on his face was more brilliant. Chapter 851 The next day, Xiao Jing arrived at the villa early in the morning to send "a family of four" to the airport. "Aunt Luo, you don''t know..." Xiao Jing stuffed a small Shaomai into his mouth and said vaguely, "I''m finally going to be liberated for a few days. I was so excited last night that I lost sleep." Aunt Luo put the freshly beaten juice on the table and said with a smile, "in fact, I agree with what Mrs. Shao said..." "Huh?" Xiao Jing impolitely poured himself a glass of juice. In that way, he didn''t treat himself as an outsider at all. "Yes, you work so hard and are always deducted from the year-end bonus..." aunt Luo said with a smile, "it''s better to resign." Then she said solemnly, as if paving the way for Xiao Jing: "look, you are so capable... Even when Chen Shao is away, you take care of the emperor group in good order. If a talent like you goes out, how many people won''t break their heads?" "Yes, I''m a fighter in the special aid!" Xiao Jing nodded approvingly, took another piece of bread and began to eat, "I can do the president''s business, but also get miscellaneous... All-round." "In fact, you can consider changing jobs..." "I have a test..." Xiao Jing''s words choked in his throat, and the corners of his mouth twitched uncontrollably. He turned his head and looked at Aunt Luo, who was smiling. He was so upset in his heart. Why is he so hard? Just spit a slot and get caught! Xiao Jing forced her to look at Aunt Luo. What was written in her eyes was pity: Aunt Luo, don''t you remind me Thinking about it, Xiao Jing pulled a smile at the corners of his mouth and looked at Gu Beichen, who had already sat down opposite, with a brighter smile. "I''ve never considered job hopping..." Xiao Jing took his face seriously and almost raised his finger to swear, "Chen Shao, you know, my loyalty to you is as much as the water in the Los Angeles River." Gu Beichen looked at him coldly and didn''t speak. To the point that J had gloated and laughed. Xiao Jing was depressed and turned his mouth He doesn''t understand. How can there be a family like Gu Beichen? One by one, they build their happiness on the "pain" of others. Alas, who are they! Xiao Jing thought so until he sent a family of four to board the plane. "Di" sounded softly. Xiao Jing took out his mobile phone while walking. On it was a text message sent by Gu Beichen: the defense line is too loose, and the second uncle won''t be so easily fooled. Grasp the scale. "Look, take it easy for the Chinese new year, a wool egg..." while Xiao Jing muttered to himself, his fingers flew around the screen and replied to the text message, "I''m just a hard life... Hum, it''s all over. I must take a big holiday, go out to bubble girls, and go to the beaches in Europe and America to see foreign girls..." Xiao Jing: I see! You and Mrs. Shao can rest assured that you will not disturb your family''s vacation! Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, and Xiao Jing put another message in: Well, after this event, you give me an enlarged leave... I don''t expect it in a year. Is it all right in three or five months? Gu Beichen scratched a shallow smile on his thin lips and replied indifferently: OK! Just when Xiao Jing saw Gu Beichen''s promise, his grin had not rippled. Another text message made him smile, completely stiff. Chen Shao: but I can''t live without someone who can handle the president''s affairs at the top and beat the hooligans at the bottom... Well, why don''t you change Qi Feng?! As soon as Xiao Jingyi saw the name "Qi Feng", the corners of his mouth twitched and only gave Gu Beichen a word: shit! "Chen Shao, do you still have humanity?" Xiao Jing spit and got into the car. Qi Feng, as brother Xiao''s bodyguard, is like a shadow If Chen shaokeng makes Qi Feng think he wants to replace him in brother Xiao''s side, Xiao Jing thinks. He doesn''t know how he died. ¡­¡­ "Jian Mo......" "Huh?" Jane Mo looks at J beside her. J looked at Gu Beichen. "Your husband smiles so..." he thought of the adjective, "well, he smiles so debauchery. At first glance, the other party is a woman." Jian Mo glanced at Gu Beichen, who wanted to be across the aisle. Seeing that he had just received his mobile phone, he smiled back and continued to turn through the magazine, "it''s estimated that it''s in the pit Xiaojing." "How do you know?" J frowns. "Just know..." Jane Morse took it for granted, "you can think of it as a soul." After Jian Mo finished, he looked at Gu Beichen again, and his eyes also looked over... They looked up in the air and smiled at each other, full of affection. Jian Jie sat beside Gu Beichen, with his arm supporting the armrest, his small hand holding his chin and shaking his head Alas, daddy is sitting beside him. Unfortunately, his heart is not with him The baby''s heart is bitter. If the baby doesn''t say, the baby decides not to know! The plane took off in a happy and warm atmosphere. It was only more than two hours from Los Angeles to the beach. The Dragon owl has arranged for someone to pick up Gu Beichen. The family directly checked into the smile hotel. Compared with the slightly cold weather in Los Angeles, the seaside city in the beginning of spring is obviously much warmer, and the clear smell of plants is distributed in the air "Xiao Shao has something to do temporarily," said the receptionist. "It''s all arranged." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly and nodded slightly. After a few more polite words, the receptionist left the luxury family suite. At the right time, a text message came in Long Xiao: you can rest assured that all the trips are your own. In addition, if Bao Xiaojie comes out of the Mo palace, Gu muhuai should be the main defense now. Gu Beichen: I know. Dragon owl: Hmm! Take it as a holiday and enjoy it Gu Beichen raised his mouth slightly and didn''t bother about it any more. He just asked with a bit of banter: why don''t you come and receive us when we come to the seaside for the new year? The Dragon owl frowned, as if he could feel Gu Beichen''s mood at the moment, but replied indifferently: warm, in a good mood today, cooking... Well, you know, I rarely eat! When Gu Beichen saw it, he directly smiled and said: it seems that I am happier than you! "..." the Dragon owl looked at Gu Beichen''s message, frowned slightly, and didn''t reply again. The Dragon owl tilted his head and looked in the direction of the kitchen. There was a slight sound coming out From the warmth of having to be his woman, it seems that... There are only a few meals she cooked by herself! The corner of his mouth overflowed with a shallow smile, and the Dragon owl converged his sight When people are helpless, they will do something they don''t want to do... For example, they had to be his woman! If a person can''t get it all the time, if he has it occasionally, his happiness will be doubled. For example, at this moment... He values sex over friends! Thinking, the black pupil of the Dragon owl like Obsidian has become deep At the right time, the mobile phone vibrated. He instantly recovered his indifference. At the same time, he looked down at the call, frowned slightly and picked up Listening to the other side''s voice, the Dragon owl''s indifferent face changed slightly, "I''ll go right away!" Words fall, others have got up and left with big steps Just when the car started and there was a roar, warm came out with vegetables in his hands. Looking at the empty living room, she frowned slightly, and then she looked out... In time, the black Bentley moushan disappeared into the depths of her eyes. Chapter 852 When I came to the seaside city again, I stood in front of the window and looked at the sea in the distance. Jian Mo always felt like yesterday is like today. It seems that it is not a long time since the memory was locked, and the sea in the ink palace is the same as that in front of us. Hands, unconsciously covered the already flat abdomen. Jian Mo''s nose was sour in an instant... But in an instant, it turned into a touch of self mockery and opened at the corners of her mouth. It''s agreed to try to accept Xiao Yan''s departure and not let that person worry? Jane Mo, you were a strong man, weren''t you? Xiao Yue can put aside the past and face her favorite lawyer career with a new life. Can''t you? Xiao Yan won''t be at ease if you are so nostalgic Taking a deep breath, Jian Mo slowly put down his hand and turned around... In an instant, he looked up at Gu Beichen''s deep eyes. Jane Mo didn''t know when Gu Beichen was standing at the door of the bedroom, or whether he found anything, but she subconsciously wanted to hide it. "J and Xiao Jie are all sorted out," Gu Beichen came forward, grabbed Jian Mo''s waist and gently kissed her forehead. "Go and have something to eat first, huh?" Jian Mo felt Gu Beichen''s breath, and the smile from the corners of her mouth spread, "OK..." Gu Beichen let go of Jian Mo, took her hand and went out of the bedroom together. They didn''t eat anywhere else, so they ate directly in the restaurant of smile hotel. "I heard that this hotel contains a love story?" Jian Mo looked at the dreamy delicacy outside the window and looked at Gu Beichen while asking. "That''s all..." after Gu Beichen gave the menu to the waiter, he looked at the question with a smile to Jian Mo, "ask me?" Jian Mo smiled. Seeing Gu Beichen''s indifference, he smiled and said, "no, I want you to ask me..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil became deep. "Then tell me about it... Well, you can compare it later. Who is more affectionate." J and Jane were opposite. For these two people, they make complaints about their two love affairs. "I think we should sit at the next table..." Jane Jie said seriously. J nodded approvingly, but neither of them moved. "Mommy, don''t take out and compare those legendary things that are not online all day long, will you?" Jian Jie sighed and shook his head, looking unbearable. "You mind me," Jane Mo stared at Jane Jie, "it''s not for you..." She hummed and looked back at Gu Beichen with a smile in her mouth. "Do you want to listen?" "You say, just listen!" Gu Beichen spoke faintly. Men are often indifferent to other people''s stories, especially love stories However, if the storyteller is the one who cares about himself, it is naturally different. "It''s said," Jane Mo put her hands together and looked out of the window with one cheek. "My brother fell in love with a woman, but for some reason, the woman had to stay with her brother..." Jane Mo tells the love story that has not been handed down many versions. Gradually, her sight becomes blurred. Even J and Jian Jie, gradually, attracted by Jane''s faint but beautiful voice, listened carefully to her telling the story. "In the end, the woman and her brother made an unswerving love..." Jane Mo''s smile filled the air, "and in order to make them more free together, my brother put down the random life he had been chasing and took over his brother''s responsibility..." Jane Mo sighed heavily, as if relieved, "and smile hotel is a gift from her brother to that woman... Smile is the best blessing!" "I said, that brother is a fool..." J immediately sneered. "Why should I give the woman I like to my brother? Even if I come first, my brother knows it first." "In the lovely situation, there is no first come, first served!" Jian Jie shrugged and looked like "I''m from here." I think mommy and Daddy have the most experience of this. " If warm company can get love, Mommy should not be with daddy now, but with Uncle "What do you know?" J turned his eyes. "A little boy who hasn''t even gone to primary school." Jian Jie sighed, "except for the computer, your IQ is not online for the rest of the time..." While fighting, the two children disliked each other. Jane Mo''s smile grew deeper and deeper. "Smile has another meaning, you know?" Gu Beichen asked with a smile while he was holding vegetables for Jian mo. "Isn''t it just a smile?" Jane Mo has some doubts. Gu Beichen looked at her with deep eyes, "because there is a ''smile'' in the woman''s name, and what attracts them most is that she will smile in the face of life, no matter when it is difficult or desperate..." Jane Mo looked up at Gu Beichen''s deep vision. She didn''t know why. She thought... Ah Chen had other meanings. "How do you... Know?" Jane Mo frowned. At the right time, J and Jian Jie both looked at Gu Beichen In their impression, such "gossip" should never be related to Gu Beichen. "Smile hotel actually belongs to dragon Empire group, but it is just a chain hotel from the outside world." Gu Beichen said calmly, "this hotel is..." After a little meditation, he said, "well, it''s the story of the grandfather and grandmother of the current president of the Dragon Empire and the third grandfather!" "..." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen in surprise, as if she couldn''t turn around for such an answer. "The Dragon boss has something to do with the dragon family," Gu Beichen said of course. "I heard something by the way." "It''s really the way..." Jane Jay immediately make complaints about it. Make complaints about Jane, who is a little headache in Beichen, and look at Jane slightly. "Son and you live, Tucao you are used to it. Now, love is cheating." well, pit father? "The network language is used well..." J looked appreciative. Jane Mo laughed with a puff. "Originally, I wanted to tell a love story to be pretentious," said Jane Jie with a sigh on her face. "It was crooked in this moment." Gu Beichen smiled with evil charm at the corners of his mouth and pulled the problem back. "In fact, other people''s love is other people''s... Their own happiness is their own." He looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes, "cherish the present and face the lost without avoiding..." Jian Mo looked up at Gu Beichen''s bottomless eagle eyes. Gradually, his thoughts seemed to be absorbed into his world. "Your happiness is very simple." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and said with deep meaning, "in the face of the sun, with my company, you can go on smiling all the time..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight into a vortex, and his voice spilled out of his thin lips with the evil charm under the secluded distance. "You just go forward. If you''re tired, just lean back directly... Because I''m here!" Chapter 853 Jane Mo only felt that her nose was sour, but the position of her heart was filled with warmth. "I will work hard..." Jian Mo said slowly, and the corners of her mouth overflowed with a smile from her heart. "Smile hard, smile hard, and join hands with you." Gu Beichen smiled. He knew her and she knew him! Mo''er, as long as you firmly believe in going with me, then... The harm is borne by me. You just need to try to smile! J tilted his mouth and muttered in his heart: no wonder qinshao and jueshao have no women. Compared with Gu Beichen, coaxing women is not a little worse. But Jian Jie made a small mouth. Just now, if he thought the story was just a story, he seemed to feel something when daddy said these words Mommy can''t let Xiao Yan go. It''s always been! Jian Jie ate silently and knew that Xiao Yan''s departure was a great blow to Mommy. Even if it is him, Mommy is not willing. Besides, Xiao Yan and Mommy have experienced so much Jian Jie took a breath secretly, looked at Jian Mo and Gu Beichen. While taking back his sight, he was secretly determined to take Xiaoyan''s love and give it to daddy and Mommy together. After dinner, Gu Beichen personally drove his family to Ocean Park. The seaside city is close to the seaside. The ocean park was invested by the Dragon empire after investing in the amusement city here. Different from the ocean park in other places, the ocean park in Haibin city is located by the sea. In addition to all the facilities and entertainment of the ocean park, there is a more unique corridor leading to the seabed, so that when you feel the underwater world, you can''t tell whether it is in the ocean park or in the belly of the sea. "Bang bang!" Jian Jie was wearing a diving suit and patting the thick glass. When Jian Mo saw it, he smiled and waved his hand, followed Gu Beichen to dive again to find J Jian Mo stood there and watched Gu Beichen play with his two children. The smile from the corners of his mouth filled his face all the time. Xu was thrown into the sea when he fled with Shi juechi last time Now Jian Mo has a physical aversion to diving and other things. However, for a long time in the ink palace, it was not so "amnesia" that it repelled the sea water at that time. Just like ordinary families, the father takes his children to experience exciting entertainment projects, and the mother is responsible for nagging, caring, considerate and occasionally playing with naughty children It was the first day of fun on the beach. "Jane Mo, I can''t sleep!" J nestled on the swing chair on the balcony, looked at the stars, smiled and said, "I''m looking forward to tomorrow... I''m too excited to sleep." Jane Mo zhe smiled. "You like it. In the future, we can go to the amusement city in Los Angeles on weekends... In spring, we can also go for outings, picnics and camping." "Really?" J sat up and his eyes lit up. "Hmm..." Jane Mo answered with a smiling face, then raised her eyebrows and asked, "but aren''t you going back to the ink palace?" "Qin shaorang..." J suddenly wanted to say something, but he suddenly stopped and nestled on the swing chair. "Anyway, Qin Shao doesn''t care about me. I can get it for him remotely!" He said with a proud face, "it''s boring to be with Qin Shao... It''s good to have delicious food and play in front of you!" "Aren''t you afraid of ah Chen''s instruction?" Jane Mo asked, and didn''t think much about J''s desire to talk and stop. "It doesn''t matter. Anyway, I''ve got what I want..." J picked his eyebrow. "In fact, your husband is also very good." Jane morhu smiled and nodded, "well, I know!" At the same time, Jian Mo glanced at Gu Beichen, "no, I won''t love him so much..." In this way, the advertisement without modification made Gu Beichen feel comfortable. When he came forward and handed the milk to Jane Mo, he looked at J and said, "if you''re not afraid that you don''t have enough physical strength to cope with the entertainment of the day tomorrow, you''ll be excited here alone!" With that, he motioned to Jane Mo and hugged her back to their bedroom. J didn''t move, but his eyes moved with Gu Beichen and Jian Mo''s back In fact, Gu Beichen took him to the playground as a condition to let him help him. He didn''t dislike it at all. It''s very simple. Gu Beichen, like Qin Shao, likes his talent, but he doesn''t want to use it. He''s just sure... He can feel it. J took back his sight, continued to nest there, looked at the stars in the ink palace, and his mouth was filled with a smile belonging to the innocence of a teenager He likes the current way of life, just like a family Although, his surname is neither Gu nor Jane. However, he can feel that Gu Beichen, Jian Mo and Xiao Jie regard him as their family. Such a feeling... Good! The next day, the sunshine in the seaside city was extraordinarily warm. In the new year, the amusement park is not only crowded, but also overcrowded. J is just like crazy. He wants to play everything he sees. Even Jane Jie, who has always been "calm", has revealed her child''s nature However, these two people are crazy, Gu Beichen is OK, and Jian Mo feels a little overwhelmed. I used to go crazy with Li Xiaoyue in the playground... But I can''t stand the madness of two dead children. "I can''t do it..." Jane Mo can''t live or die with the big pendulum. "I think I''m going up for two circles. I guess I can''t tell the southeast from the northwest." Then she looked at Gu Beichen, who was so indifferent from beginning to end, "why didn''t you respond at all?" Gu Beichen looked at the uncomfortable Jian Mo and said with a smile on his thin lips: "the third sister liked these very much. When she was a child, she was always brought over by him. If she played more, she didn''t feel any more..." Then he looked at J, "you take Xiao Jie to continue. Mo''er and I will go there for a drink. Come down and find us." "Good!" J answered and knew that Jian Mo would no longer play with them, so he took Jian Jie to line up. Jane Mo shook her head. Gu Beichen took her hand and went to a coffee bar in front. "The first time I saw the milk bag so unstable..." Jane Mo felt guilty. In the past, in London, I also wanted to take milk bags to the casino, but he always looked disdainful, which made her not in the mood. Now it seems that the milk bag is not interested... I totally dislike her! Thinking, Jane Mo bared her teeth and said, "I''m surprised. Do you have any attributes that are specially used to attract people?" "Yes." Gu Beichen saw through Jian Mo''s idea and smiled. Jane Mo didn''t expect Gu Beichen to be thicker and thicker now. Just wanted to laugh at him, she heard him say low: "otherwise, how can you attract you to love me?" Jane Mo''s lips stiffened in the distance. Then she smiled, "shameless..." "Last night you told me you loved me. Now it''s shameless for me?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows. Jane Mo raised her chin slightly, "that premise is also when you love me..." "Well," Gu Beichen answered again, "I really love you!" In this way, they talked about meat and hemp as food, and went to the order table to prepare a meal. Gu Beichen is ordering a drink. Jian Mo subconsciously looks back at the team of big pendulum The flow of people is moving. I can''t see J and Jian Jie. Where are you waiting in line. "Aim at point a..." Meanwhile, in a building not far from the playground, a long-range sniper rifle was aimed at the direction of the big pendulum. The sniper said coldly, "after the target moves three meters, it will be within the effective range!" Chapter 854 "The target will reach the effective range in three steps," said the sniper in a low voice. "Please shoot!" At the same time, his finger holding the trigger has moved slightly. "Agree to shoot!" In the headphones, there was a cold and bloodthirsty voice. The sniper narrowed his sight slowly, pulled the trigger finger, moved at a very slow speed, waiting for the target character to enter the sniper range J and Jian Jie hang their necks to see how many people are waiting in line. They are so excited that they can''t wait to jump the queue. "I suddenly thought of a question..." J suddenly stopped moving, looked at Jian Jie and said, "your height should not play this!" "..." Jane Jie was stunned and looked at the crazy swinging pendulum, "it seems so!" Then he looked at the moving crowd, his small face wrinkled, as if he wanted to line up and try... If he couldn''t, he wouldn''t play. "The one in front, why don''t you move..." At the right time, there was a hurried voice behind, a little impetuous. J was dissatisfied at the moment. He just wanted to turn back and say a few words, and was stopped by Jane Gerald. "Please live a better life. Don''t come out of the mountains all day long. It''s like being exclusive..." Then he moved forward. "Forget it, line up first. If you don''t want to play anyway, I''ll just line up with you..." Jane Jie said carelessly, but in her bright eyes, she clearly had a greed for the exciting feeling of the big pendulum. Jane Jie said something and moved again "Bang!" At the right time, the sound of gunfire with silencer cut through the air and whirled at a very fast speed... When it penetrated the skull, it brought out a small stream of blood. Quiet! But it''s still noisy! Jane Jie moves with the crowd, and j follows him. Occasionally, some people are dissatisfied with the people behind him because they hit him too much. He frowned and tried not to bump into Jane Jie even if he was driven too hard. "Come out and have fun..." Jian Jie looked back at J''s smelly face. "You have to understand, well, this is life." J glanced, "I''m afraid they''ll hit you..." Jane jiemeng smiled at J, "I''m not saying you''re wrong, I''m saying make you happy..." J listened, grinned and said, "all right, let''s go... It''s disgusted by the people behind us." J and Jian Jie continued to move while "bickering". Gradually, someone in the crowd began to talk "Look, how harmonious the brothers are?" "Yes, my elder brother protects my younger brother more... Alas, the older ones in my family are not satisfied since I was pregnant with the younger one, and when the younger one comes out, the two brothers are like enemies..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± From time to time, people educate the two children around them to learn more about the way J and Jian Jie get along with each other. The amusement park is still lively. Compared with here, the top floor of the building is filled with the smell of death. The sniper who was going to shoot fell into a pool of blood with his eyes wide open, and his fingers were still on the trigger He didn''t know how to shoot until he was ready to die. A man in a city uniform said to the man on the walkie talkie after detecting that the sniper was indeed dead: "the sniper is done..." "Watch your hands!" Then another voice came. "Happy cooperation..." the talking man smiled. "Cat''s eye, your gun can be used as a demonstration. The sniper has no chance..." the man who killed the observer smiled and said, "fast, accurate and cruel!" "I think we should suggest silver fox, the new rookie shooting class, you come!" Another voice came out. The man called "cat''s eye" immediately rolled his eyes, looked at the unwilling sniper and said to the walkie talkie, "don''t... I''m not going to take those rookies, and don''t give advice to the captain." Inside came laughter, cat''s eye spit, threw his sniper gun behind, skillfully disassembled the sniper rifle in the sniper''s hand. The cat''s eye looked at the sniper gun in his hand. "Shit, the killer''s equipment is better than mine. Can I hide it?" "If you have the courage, go to Yinhu to..." "Grass!" Cat eye immediately scolded, "said is equal to didn''t say." "Come on, don''t make trouble..." Lin Nan''s voice suddenly added, "how many dark piles have been pulled out around?" "We pulled out three..." cat''s eye skimmed. "The rest are gone." He put a light in his eyes, "Captain, who are your friends? How do you feel? The technique is as good as ours..." "Well, if I have a chance, I can have a private match..." Lin Nan''s voice was a little strange. As soon as the cat''s eye and others listened, they hurriedly refused one by one towards the walkie talkie. Are you kidding When the captain usually says so, there is absolutely nothing good. "How to solve it next?" The cat looked at the body and asked. "The police will be there soon..." Lin said to the south. "In two minutes, all the people will evacuate, and the rest will be negotiated." "Copy that!" "Copy that!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Lin Nannan confirmed that everyone received it and then looked at the table Although this operation has been reported to the above, there are some reasons involved in it. It is not good to negotiate directly with the police. When the police car came, Lin Nan called the Dragon owl, "boss long, our people withdrew, and then your people took over..." "Yes!" The Dragon owl answered. "In addition, it seems that a group of people are protecting Xiaojie?" Lin asked with a frown. "It should be from Mo palace!" "Shi Shaoqin?!" Lin Nan was obviously surprised. The Dragon owl just answered faintly and didn''t say much about the things on the safflower list After all, it''s a dark world, and Lin Nanan is a red figure in the military. It''s better not to participate too much. Lin Nannan naturally knew that he didn''t ask much, but looked at the gate of the playground. Boss Long''s men and Shi Shaoqin''s men are in the dark. Why did the third brother arrange his field team to come? Listen to the meaning of cat''s eye, even without them... The sniper can''t get good at all. "Drive..." "Yes!" Lin Nan took back his puzzled eyes, but the deep thoughts spread from the bottom of his eyes. Just as the car was drawn out of the amusement park, Lin Nan finally took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to Gu Beichen: third brother, did you pull me here to cover the evacuation of Shi Shaoqin''s people? Gu Beichen didn''t reply to Lin Nannan, but he was sure. If what the Dragon boss said is true, there is only such an explanation. When was the relationship between the third brother and Shi Shaoqin good enough to need his cover? Chapter 855 Thinking like this, Lin Nan was more and more unhappy In that way, where is the iron blood forest called "North Silver Fox" in the army? It''s completely a younger brother who grew up around Gu Beichen because he was spoiled and jealous! "Captain, shall we close the team next?" On the co pilot''s seat, a strong black man with a flat head and looks like he is in his thirties asked. "Stop the team..." Lin spit to the south. "Well, tell the brothers to go to ''jinzui''. Today, all the consumption has been covered." "Captain, what''s your bag?" The black man grinned, "Jin Zui heard that it''s the most money burning club in Haibin city..." "I''m free to spend today. I''ll inform my brothers that although I choose the most expensive one, I haven''t eaten or drunk..." Lin Nan said, "it doesn''t matter who will pay for it. Anyway, it''s right for someone to buy it!" If you don''t blackmail the third brother and the profiteer, you can''t swallow this anger! Thinking, Lin Nan''s mobile phone vibrated and a text message came in He opened it secretly and coldly, which was sent by Gu Beichen: the accounts of jinzui club are all mine! Poof Lin Nanan only felt that a mouthful of old blood could be sprayed out. His just anger was suddenly held back: third brother, how did you know we were going to jinzui. Gu Beichen took out a paper towel and gently wiped the corners of Jian Mo''s mouth before replying to Lin Nannan: people are angry and always need to vent... Well, what I can let you vent is more money! "..." Lin Nannan was speechless. "Something?" Jane Mo said, digging a piece of cake and handing it to her mouth. Gu Beichen smiled and said, "I took my friends to the club to play in the south. Well, I said to hang up my account!" "He''s taking military food now. It''s a little hard to spend in the emperor''s Club..." Jane Mo didn''t think too much, but said with a smile, "anyway, you have a lot of silly money." "Well, that''s how I replied..." Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a smile. As soon as Jane Mo heard this, the smile on her face became more and more brilliant "Daddy, I want to eat mommy''s cake, too!" Jane Jie suddenly sat across the street with a bit of boredom. "Hey, why you, J?" Jane Mo frowned slightly and looked around to make sure J didn''t follow. "Xiao Jie is not tall enough, so he should not play..." Gu Beichen said, and then got up to give Jian Jie something to eat. "Yes..." Jian Mo suddenly said, "there are no restrictions on the previous projects. Forget the latter." Jian Jie snorted, "I''ll see what else to eat..." and the man followed Gu Beichen to order something. Jane Mo smiled and shrugged her shoulders. She was used to being despised by Jane Jie. In fact... She is used to it! Well, it''s a real habit! Jian Mo looked back at the place where he ordered the order. Gu Beichen leaned over and picked up Jian Jie. While the father and son lined up, they pointed to the meal card in front and were discussing what to order Jane Mo dragged her chin and watched. Two beautiful women, one big and one small, stopped there. Tut Tut, it''s really a beautiful scenery. Just Jane Mo looked around and even began to talk about her husband and son. Alas, when you take a handsome husband and cute son out, you have to put up with those thoughtful eyes at any time... Your heart is stuffed. Jane Mo took back her sight and drank milk tea. She was angry "Daddy..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen looks at Jian Jie. Jian Jie first looked at Jian Mo''s back and whispered, "I think the people around me are a little strange." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes became deep, "what''s the matter?" "It''s like, many people seem to be the staff of the amusement park, but they don''t feel much like..." Jian Jie glanced. "If you put it in the gunfight film, it feels that there are plainclothes undercover agents of the police around you!" Gu Beichen slightly raised his eyebrows. The depth of the ink pupil was already deep, but on the surface, it looked so indifferent, "you think too much..." "Oh..." Jian Jie asked with his small arm around Gu Beichen''s neck, "what''s our activity tomorrow?" "There is a transformer Experience Hall on the beach..." Gu Beichen''s voice became soft. "It has not been officially opened to the outside world." Jane Jie''s eyes lit up in an instant because she didn''t play with the big pendulum. "Really?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered with a smile. "Is there a project you can make yourself?" Jane Jie has completely forgotten the "plain clothes" problem she was struggling with just now, and all her thoughts are filled with transformers in her mind. "Of course..." Gu Beichen patiently answered all Jianjie''s questions. Originally, he was going to surprise his son tomorrow. However, the little guy is too smart to find the protection personnel arranged by the Dragon boss I don''t want him to have a bad time. Naturally, this surprise can only be made in advance. ¡­¡­ The homicide during the Chinese New Year is of a bad nature... Although it did not cause panic among the people, the police still attached great importance to it. "Boss, have the forensic results come out?" The sniper of a special police team rubbed his hands and asked, "I heard that the sniper who killed this killer is very powerful?" "The killer is ready to shoot," said the captain of the special police with a serious face. "Kill with one shot, and ensure that the killer''s fingers can''t continue to pull the trigger under the central nervous response... Do you think it''s powerful?" The special combat team member opened his mouth slightly in surprise, and even swallowed with his Adam''s apple rolling. The Swat captain ignored him and just went to the office. When opening the door, the special police captain looked at the people standing at the window and asked, "why did you come here in person?" The Dragon owl slowly turned around and wrapped his tall body in a well tailored suit, "just around..." "The simulator has arrived at the scene." The special police captain put the report in his hand on the table, "people in the dark are controlled by your people. Why do you have to do a simulation test?" The Dragon owl sat down with his eyes slightly deep. "The red flower list has not been removed. There will always be people who want to hold a lucky heart..." The most important thing is that he doesn''t trust Gu mohuai. Don''t say whether he set up the red flower list, but no one can guarantee that it is not used to hide people''s eyes and ears. And really, his purpose is not just to kill Xiaojie to make Beichen and Jian Mo suffer. The special police captain made tea for the Dragon owl, looked at the time and said, "there is no accident, there should be simulation results soon..." Just then, the office phone rang. The special police captain looked at the call and said, "the result should come out..." he directly pressed hands-free. "What is simulated on site?" "Captain, the simulation diagram has been sent to the mailbox..." "Let me see!" The captain of the special police responded, hung up the phone and entered the mailbox. The Dragon owl looked at the simulated shooting picture of the picture, and there was not much emotional change on his indifferent face Until, when the last shooting point fell somewhere, his eyes suddenly gathered, with a touch of horror. "What''s the matter?" The special police captain looked puzzled when he saw the dignified face of the Dragon owl. Dragon owl sat down and directly cut into the monitoring system of the amusement park with another computer, pulling out the previous time "The shooting point is not the target character?!" The captain of the special police compared the simulation diagram and the monitoring diagram. He also looked puzzled, "isn''t Gu Yan the target of the killer?" The Dragon owl looked at the target figure under the simulation diagram. It was a woman moving in his direction three meters away from Jian Jie However, in an instant, the Dragon owl, who had the most intuitive experience of the dark world, had a shocking idea in his mind. Almost without thinking, the Dragon owl has dialed Gu Beichen''s phone: "leave quickly, there are body bombs around..." Chapter 856 "After eating, let''s take the jump machine..." J said, grabbed the milk tea and drank it in one breath. Jian Jie glanced. "It''s not us... It''s yourself!" J was stunned and suddenly reacted. Jian Jie still couldn''t play well. Jian Mo looked at the little milk bag and said with a smile, "anyway, you don''t like these things. I remember someone said... Don''t call him such a retarded thing!" As soon as Jane Jie heard this, she felt so sad in her heart! I didn''t go to the playground before. Mommy always wanted to take him to Disney, okay? Now Mommy took it out to laugh at him The three of them made a stand here. Gu Beichen went to the ordering table and ordered some food to supplement J''s physical strength. "Want a C package..." Gu Beichen said, taking out the money and handing it to the cashier. At the right time, the mobile phone was "buzzing" in his pocket. Gu Beichen took it out and saw that it was the Dragon owl. Subconsciously, he slightly locked his eyebrows and put it in his ear "How..." "Leave quickly, there are suicide bombers around..." The dignified voice came with a trace of anxiety. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes suddenly looked at Jian Mo''s position subconsciously. He put down his cell phone and the man turned and ran to the other side "Sir, what you ordered..." the waiter looked at Gu Beichen''s back and shouted, looking puzzled. The people who ordered around looked at Gu Beichen instinctively. "What''s the matter?" A gust of wind has come to Jane''s side. "I have something temporary. I won''t play today. Let''s go first..." Gu Beichen said, giving j a look. In the end, it is the person who has been in Mo palace for several years. In addition, during this period of time, he and Gu Beichen have cooperated seamlessly with J immediately understood. "OK..." J answered and picked up Jian Jie around him. "I remember twice when I look back!" He moved so quickly that even Jane Jay didn''t react. Jane Mo''s nerves were tense for a moment, but Gu Beichen couldn''t care so much now At the right time, a woman walked to the rest shed as if nothing had happened, and the goal was obvious to Gu Beichen in their direction. Gu Beichen''s sense of crisis glanced at the woman, but he frowned suddenly. "Bang!" "Ah --" Just when Jian Mo just got up, and even before she could see everything clearly, there were screams everywhere The flow of people seemed to break out in an instant. Even many people didn''t know where they were. They were stunned and ran blankly with the crowd. For a time, the whole amusement park fell into chaos, and there was a cry from the running machine because the human body was suffering from madness that could not be borne at ordinary times. Near the rest shed, it was because of the screams of panic and panic. The woman who originally went to the rest shed was shot through the temple and fell to the ground The blood quickly spread around her head. Not only here, without a moment''s effort, the same "homicide" came from several places in the amusement park. J has pressed Jianjie''s head on his shoulder and let the little guy want to move, but he used his best strength to prevent him from seeing the scene in front of him Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo and said in a dignified voice, "go!" Jane Mo''s face had turned pale. Although she didn''t see the scene because Gu Beichen moved very fast... However, she seemed unable to be unfamiliar with the sound of gunfire and frightened cry. Didn''t speak, just let Gu Beichen hug himself and leave Gu Beichen can''t take into account Jian Mo''s mood at the moment. Protecting her and Jian Jie is the only thing he can do at the moment. Along the way, there were dragon owls nearby. Gu Beichen nodded slightly and looked at J. several people had flashed into the employee channel. The car is waiting outside. Qi Feng is driving. The closest bodyguard hidden around the Dragon Owl... Or, the top killer in the world! "Xiao Shao, just in case, let me pick you up." Qi Feng said indifferently without any expression on his face. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, holding Jian Mo''s hand with an unknown slight tremble. He knew someone would do something, but he didn''t expect to use such a crazy move as a human bomb "Let go of me..." Jane Jie''s stuffy voice came. J remembered that he had been covering Jane Jie, but he was nervous and forgot to let him go. Jian Jie left the shackles and looked at Gu Beichen with bright eyes, looking for some answer. However, when he saw Jian Mo''s bad face, he sat there silently. On the third day of the lunar new year, a vicious shooting incident occurred in the largest amusement park in Asia, because it belonged to the Dragon Empire group. However, in an instant, it permeated all media channels and became a national and even international controversial topic. Originally, everything within the controllable range became uncontrollable because of a crazy move. But this incident, after suppressing the real reason, has brought out many problems... This is what the Dragon owl did not expect. Everything happened so fast that when many people in the playground didn''t know what had happened, Gu Beichen and his four people had been sent back to the hotel. The sirens outside are everywhere, and in this new year, they have become particularly impetuous. J is actually a person in the Mo palace. He seems to have no emotion about such things After all, there are too many dead people in Shi Shaoqin! Jian Jie didn''t see the bloody scene, but it doesn''t mean he doesn''t know what happened Although I have a high IQ, I''m a child in the end. When I think of the picture that may just appear, my mouth can''t help laughing. Jian Mo pressed down the fear suddenly in her heart, held Jian Jie in her arms and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen doesn''t know how to explain for the time being, or he doesn''t know what words to use in order to dispel their thoughts in the face of smart Jian Mo and Jian Jie. "There are few owls..." Qi Feng said after answering the phone, looking at Gu Beichen coldly. "Qi Feng will stay," Gu Beichen leaned over and kissed Jian Mo on the forehead. "Don''t think about anything first. Just stay here until I come back, huh?" Jane murmured her lips and nodded. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Jie again. Jian Jie fanned his eyes and nodded to him. After looking at J, he turned and left the suite. Jian Mo looked at the closed door, took a breath, smiled at Jian Jie and said, "just like a child now..." "Mommy, compared with your poor comfort, I think..." Jane Jie rolled her eyes. "We can actually study what just happened?" In the face of what happened, in fact, it''s easier to think about it than to hold it in your heart. "I didn''t see anything..." Jane Mo frowned. "Me too!" Jian Jie shrugged his small shoulders and then looked at J. J was stunned. "I wanted to see it... But a group of people ran around. I followed Gu Beichen and didn''t pay attention." Jian Jie frowned. "If my judgment is correct, it seems that I heard gunshots..." Chapter 857 In the suite, it is not much easier to say it, but it is not more dignified. No matter Jane Mo or Jane Jie, no one is stupid. Besides, we all have a little time in our hearts. Qi Feng leaned indifferently on the most favorable position of the room, although in the hotel, there would be no vicious event like the amusement park. The "sky" outside because the playground became gloomy. In the cafe of smile Hotel, Long Xiao and Gu Beichen sit opposite each other in the window. They can see the unique scenery outside, but feel the dignified atmosphere. "You mean..." Gu Beichen twisted his eyebrows, and a pair of eagle eyes looked coldly at the Dragon owl opposite. "May it be just a cover?" The Dragon owl''s angular handsome face was shrouded in haze, "I have to say... Gu mohuai knows you very well." Why not? After the kidnapping, he and Gu muhuai fought for so long that they knew each other. Therefore, he guessed the most likely shooting point for sniping. People who were worried about Shi Shaoqin were afraid of accidents... He used his relationship to bring his special combat team to the south to participate. Indeed, Gu muhuai did arrange a sniper However, the final goal is not Xiao Jie, but an irrelevant and important person. This inevitably makes people wonder. Naturally, what they think of is also the darkest "Four people, their identities are all Vietnamese..." when long Xiao said this, Jun''s face was completely indifferent. "People have been dissected, and it is indeed a human bomb." Gu Beichen quietly looked at the Dragon owl and waited for him to continue. "But they don''t have any device that can detonate..." the voice of the Dragon owl was a little dignified, "that is to say, they are actually safe without external help!" Gu Beichen''s eyebrows tightened more and more, and his cold face was shrouded in a haze, "so... What''s his purpose?" "Now that''s the problem..." said the Dragon owl. "We have arranged snipers and body bombs... As long as they detonate, the target may not be just Xiaojie alone." "The diameter of the scope is relatively large," Gu Beichen said indifferently. "If the goal is not clear, it''s really a malignant event." At that time, the Dragon empire will fall into great public opinion "The body bomb can''t self explode..." the Dragon owl looked sideways, pondered, and then frowned. "Since the body bomb has been arranged, Gu mohuai shouldn''t have thought of it. It''s very likely that we will make him unable to start." There is really no way to start After all, all the hidden piles, no matter those of the Dragon owl, Shi Shaoqin... Or Lin Nanan, have been eliminated. Gu Beichen was silent, and the eagle''s eyes were already deep If he is Gu mohuai, what is the reason for this arrangement? The purpose that cannot be guessed is the one that makes people have no bottom in their heart At this moment, not only Gu Beichen, but also the Dragon owl wondered what Gu muhuai was doing for. "For today''s sake, we can only find out the second uncle first..." Gu Beichen''s voice was dignified, took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to Xiao Jing. Military tracking and anti tracking, he never knew that the second uncle used so skillfully. But now, it''s obvious that people in the South were careless before It''s obviously very difficult to catch the second uncle in the same way. "How''s Jane Mo?" Asked the Dragon owl. "The pupil of you Chen is too deep, and you Chen is not good......" Looking at the worry on his face, the Dragon owl sighed, "I haven''t thought enough all the time." "Mo''er and Xiao Jie can''t live without a normal life..." Gu Beichen doesn''t know whether it''s helpless or something. He laughs at himself. "It''s not today, it''s tomorrow." It''s impossible for him not to let Mo''er and Xiao Jie go out, so he can''t stop things from happening Now, only when it is solved can we give them a world of normal life. "What are you going to do next?" The Dragon owl picked up the coffee and drank, of course. "I''m afraid I''m not in the mood to play..." Gu Beichen frowned, and Jun''s face was full of guilt. His itinerary for several days is arranged. Not only because he promised J, he also wants to take Mo''er and Xiao Jie to relax together. But obviously, after today''s events, no one will be relaxed. "Back to Los Angeles?" Dragon owl light EH. Gu Beichen was silent and said, "if there is no accident... It may be." No one has the mind to play. On the one hand, the most important thing is that he is afraid that Mo''er''s depression will be serious because he is worried about Xiao Jie. Before, he tried to guide her to look forward, which was a little effective... He was afraid that after today''s events, he would not only return to the original point, but also get worse. "If you decide to go back, I''ll arrange it." The Dragon owl said, "don''t take the general civil aviation. I''ll arrange the private plane of dragon Empire airlines." "OK." Gu Beichen did not refuse, nor did he ask the Dragon owl what step he had taken with the dragon family. In fact, both of them know very well that the dragon family can''t let the Dragon owl be outside all the time Gu Beichen returned to the bedroom and nodded with Qi Feng. Qi Feng turned coldly and left. "Xiaojie and j are playing games in the bedroom..." Jane Mo came forward, circled Gu Beichen''s waist and put his cheek against his chest. "Don''t worry about me, I''m fine." Gu Beichen''s heart twitched suddenly. He hugged Jane Mo and tore his chin on her head. "It''s really okay?" "You... Don''t you?" Jane Mo looked up with a smile. "You said, everything has you. I just need to walk forward with a smile!" The deep ink pupil looks at Jian Mo''s tender eyes, and her beautiful face is vaguely strong. Gu Beichen didn''t say anything, but Junyan attached... Thin lips, soft with simple foam, gently rubbed and sucked and licked. Kiss, gradually from caressing to burning and domineering, the entanglement between lips and tongues blends each other''s thoughts. As long as she''s okay, as long as Xiao Jie is okay Gu Beichen thought that he had nothing else to ask for. Whether it''s money or power, he wants it! Just because only by standing at the top can he be able to protect what he wants to protect ¡­¡­ "Cough, cough, cough..." There was a musty smell in the dark cabin. Gu Mo Huai covered his mouth and coughed, watching the shooting at the seaside amusement park broadcast on the small TV in front of him. "According to the police, this time is purely a destructive act of the dark forces... The police have formed a special team to clean up the dark forces in Haibin city..." Listening to the host''s report, Gu Mo Huai spilled a cold smile from the corners of his mouth. Turning around, he found an old analog mobile phone from the small table with beer cans and instant noodles boxes, and dialed out "Don''t contact me again," Gu mohuai said coldly. "I''ve paved the road for you. I won''t participate in what you want to do." Without waiting for the other party to speak, Gu mohuai hung up, pulled out his mobile phone card and threw it into the trash can. Watching the news on TV, Gu murhuai spilled a cold smile from the corners of his mouth, and his voice echoed in the dark cabin: "Gu Beichen, I want to see if you can guess my purpose this time..." Chapter 858 Night came quietly under the influence of the amusement park event. Because of the shooting incident, although the people were not hurt, the amusement park was temporarily closed for investigation. The most direct impact will be the impact of dragon Empire group''s investment in Haibin city and the turmoil in the stock market tomorrow. "The latest report," said the host in a clear voice on the evening news, "long Ziyi, President of the Dragon Empire, has arrived at the seaside in the afternoon..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. At the right time, Jane Mo changed her clothes and came out of the room. "Xiao Jie and j are not ready yet?" Jane Mo knocked on their door. "Right away..." J''s voice came. While turning off the computer, he motioned to Jian Jie. "If Gu Beichen knows that I let you see this, he must throw me down from upstairs." Jian Jie skimmed. "I haven''t seen the key yet." Then he walked out angrily. J has just invaded the monitoring system of the amusement park. In fact, there is nothing. He just wants to see what happened. Now the news outside is blocked, and there is nothing except some words and panic pictures. Four people left the room together and went to the restaurant of the hotel Smile hotel is a high-end hotel. The dining environment in the restaurant is very quiet and peaceful. Naturally, there will be no discussion about the amusement park events in ordinary restaurants outside. A meal, four people eat fairly harmonious Under the guidance of Gu Beichen, naturally no one will tangle in the amusement park event. "Daddy..." Jian Jie washed his hands in the bathroom and looked aside to wait for Gu Beichen. "Will tomorrow''s trip be cancelled?" Gu Beichen glanced at him, "do you still want to go?" "I want to go, but I don''t want to cause you trouble..." Jane Jie directly expressed his wishes. Gu Beichen took out a piece of paper and wiped Jian Jie''s hands. "You and Mommy will never be my trouble..." he said. He reached out his palm and took Jian Jie and left the bathroom together. "That Daddy means..." "If you want to go, the trip will continue tomorrow." Gu Beichen said seriously. "Not reluctantly?" Jian Jie raised his small face and looked at Gu Beichen with bright eyes. "Of course!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a shallow smile. That smile was full of awe inspiring breath. Jian Jie seems to have a deep memory of this moment in his later life. He knew that his father was very strong, but his arrogance at the moment was to prop up a sky for a child and belong to the domineering spirit of a father. Jane Jie smiled and returned to the table happily. "Gu Beichen and j have reached an agreement..." Gee, gee, what''s the matter? " Jane Mo is also curious. In her cognition, milk bags rarely have such arbitrary expressions "Daddy will take us to the transformers Experience Hall tomorrow!" Jane Jie raised a small eyebrow and shook his body. Where is the shadow brought by the playground? Looking at Jane Jie''s happy appearance, Jane Mo''s mouth involuntarily overflowed with a smile. When he was in London, the happiest thing for Jian Jie was to be able to buy the surroundings of the transformation system. This is also the only place where Jian Mo felt like a child as a child. Strange to say, I don''t know if it''s father son nature. Ah Chen seems to like changing things very much Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen, holding his cheek gently. The smile on the corner of his mouth gently filled the whole face, and gradually turned into a dream at the bottom of his eyes "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen tilted his head lightly, and his voice was low under the charm. Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "I just think it''s amazing that the milk bag wasn''t around you when you were a child, but it''s the same thing you like." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deep, bent over and said vaguely in Jian Mo''s ear: "that''s because my genes are strong..." "Teng" for a while, Jane Mo''s face became dry and red. Angrily, he tilted his eyes and looked at Beichen. He saw his evil smile on the corner of his mouth, which was filled with immorality. J and Jian Jie looked at each other and sighed. The OS in their hearts was: showing love every minute! ¡­¡­ "I''m not going to protect Shen Hangzhi..." Shen Chu looked at Luo yueman, who was crying silently, and said gnashing his teeth, "Mom, if you think you can live this year, you can live it. If you don''t want to... You''re free!" With that, Shen Chu turned around and took his bag. His face was full of anger. "Xiao Chu..." Luo yueman looked at Shen Chu dimly with tears in his eyes. "This new year, let your father..." "He''s not my father!" Shen Chu was like crazy. He turned back and shouted at Luo yueman, "when did he treat me as his daughter? Didn''t he still have the black sheep of Shen Tianyue? He asked him to protect..." "Xiao Chu, isn''t he incompetent?" Luo yueman''s voice choked, as if she had no way. Shen Chu sneered, "Shen Tianyue has no way, do I deserve to bear it?" She sneered. She felt like a century''s joke "When things are good, who of you thinks of me?" Shen Chu was extremely sad. "Now you think of me?" She restrained her expression, and her beautiful face was filled with resentment. "I''ll put down my words today. I won''t protect Shen Hangzhi. I wish he could sit through the bottom of the prison!" Luo yueman looked at Shen Chu and forgot to cry. He just looked surprised It seems that I have never known this daughter. "I''m not the white lotus of the virgin. I can''t do anything good for evil!" Shen Chu gnashed his teeth. "Mom, I don''t have a choice for my parents, but life... I have to choose by myself now!" Then, Shen Chu coldly withdrew his sight, changed his shoes and wanted to leave. "Xiao Chu, how can you be so cruel?" Luo yueman shouted sharply at Shen Chu, "without your father, where did you come from -" "Ha ha..." Shen Chu''s eyes turned red in an instant. She tilted her head slightly, looked at Luo yueman and said in despair, "I hope there is no me!" Then she suddenly opened the door and strode away. The door was slammed shut with a bang. Tears, no longer uncontrollable overflow the eyes. Shen Chu walked to the elevator with tears on one side and a stiff smile on the corner of his mouth. It seems that no matter how much sadness she has to endure... As long as she smiles, it seems that she won''t be so sad and pathetic. The night in Los Angeles was a little chilly. Shen Chu walked alone on the street at night She didn''t know how long she had been walking. When she stood in the overcrowded Los Angeles square, she suddenly felt surprised. Is she too lonely? Will not find their own place with the most people, but also the busiest place in Los Angeles on New Year''s Eve The joy of the family, the play of children, the singing and piano of street artists Shen Chu only feels his nose is sour. Everyone seems to have a life that is not lonely. At least, in this new year. But what about her? "Bang bang!" Suddenly, fireworks bloomed in the air. Shen Chu subconsciously looked up and looked at the colorful fireworks rendering the whole ink space... Suddenly, the sad mood was amplified. The fireworks faded gradually, and Shen Chu laughed at himself Once, she was proud and brilliant, but now?! Slowly drooping his eyes, a delicate champagne rose appeared in front of him Shen Chu looked at the rose blankly at the bottom of his eyes. After a while, he subconsciously looked at the person holding the flower. "There''s a ball ahead," said the man, with the grace of a gentleman under the evil spirit. "Is it a pleasure to invite you to dance with me?" Chapter 859 Shen Chu frowned slightly, and his pretty face was sad and lonely, with a trace of sadness. The man''s mouth is filled with a faint smile of evil charm, and some dangerous breath overflows He didn''t urge, but looked at Shen Chu seriously. His eyes clearly saw through the depth of people''s hearts, but they were covered by cynical evil. "OK..." Shen Chu picked his eyebrows and smiled proudly. He reached out and took the champagne rose from the man''s hand. Flowers are her favorite. People... Are strangers! However, in this lonely and sad night, can''t she indulge once? The man raised his eyebrows and naturally pulled Shen Chu''s hand. Shen Chu subconsciously wanted to take it back. Unfortunately, the man''s overbearing direct shackle was stopped, and then he turned his head and gave her a deep and ruffian look, "this kind of night is suitable for abandoning everything to indulge, isn''t it?" Shen Chu was slightly stunned. "It''s also......" she agreed with the man''s words. A dance party is being held in the middle of Los Angeles square. A spontaneously organized band is playing songs and allowing people to participate spontaneously. There are flower vendors around. When men invite women to dance, they must invite them with flowers Although it is a marketing means, it is obvious that no one will be stingy in such a night. The man pulled Shen Chu to the center of the stage and looked at the bag in her hand. He felt it was a little eye-catching. As soon as he pulled it, he invited the assistant of the band to keep it for him. Shen Chu didn''t stop. Although she had money and mobile phones, she suddenly felt arrogant and crazy in her blood, which made her feel that everything didn''t matter The man made a gentleman''s salute. Shen Chu put his hand on his palm. He immediately made a beautiful rotation and held her in his arms. Too close, even, each other''s breathing is so clear. Shen Chu wanted to open a little distance, but the man didn''t allow it. He just smiled, "Waltz, remember to give me all of you and follow me..." he moved forward slightly and dropped the last half sentence in Shen Chu''s ear, "... Spin out of madness!" The man looked up slightly and Shen Chu looked at him. At that moment, she fell into his vortex Beautiful music, the most intimate Waltz and wonderful rotation are the most moving confessions between lovers. Men''s dance steps are superb, and Shen Chu, who is a rich family, is naturally not weak in this regard The cooperation between the two quickly attracted the attention of many people... Until the end of the song. The man held Shen Chu''s waist and pressed slightly. He was still very close to her, as if to make Shen Chu indulge in the world he created. The light was blurred and made a light and shadow on the man. Shen Chu couldn''t see his expression clearly because of the man''s backlight. He just felt that such a dangerous breath showed an ambiguity that she resisted. The excited scream of a child suddenly woke Shen Chu''s mind. She looked back in a panic. At the same time, she pushed the man away... Because the action was too big, she stumbled under her feet and almost didn''t fall down. The man is not a gentleman at all. He doesn''t intend to help Shen Chu at all. He just looks at her with a ruffian smile. Shen Chu was a little embarrassed. He looked at the man and went to the band to get his bag without saying anything The man kept looking at her. When Shen Chu looked back, he just looked at him funny. I''m a little angry. I don''t know whether it''s because of this man or myself Shen chuzhe lowered the corner of his mouth, pulled back his sight, turned and left. "Road guide," when Shen Chu''s figure just disappeared in the crowd, a neutral girl with a baseball cap turned upside down ran over, "everyone is waiting for you. Why are you still here?" The man looked at the girl and then looked in the direction of Shen Chu. He said with a smile, "I just saw a woman who is very suitable for the new drama owner." as he said, his eyes suddenly showed far-reaching, "but after dancing with her..." "You don''t think it''s suitable!" The girl rolled her eyes and wrote on her face that she couldn''t stand it. "No!" The man shook his head. When the girl looked at him suspiciously, he said wildly, "I just don''t think I want to put that woman in front of the screen... Well, it should be in my bed!" "..." girl''s lips corner, for director such "dirty", already unable to make complaints about it. "Let''s go!" The man said, taking the lead in raising his feet. "I love to talk all day, and I didn''t see who you really put into bed..." the girl couldn''t stand murmuring and made a face at the man''s back. "If you have the ability, you really put people into bed..." The two men walked with their own thoughts. Shen Chu just had a dance. Inexplicably, the sadness in the evening was relieved a lot. Sitting on the chair for rest in the square, Shen Chu took out his mobile phone, turned it around in the address book, and finally stopped at Jian Mo''s number Shen Chu: what dance steps do you like? Jian Mo just took a bath and came out. While enjoying Gu Beichen''s intimate hair blowing service, she replied to Shen Chu: Tango! Shen Chu suddenly remembered that at grandma Gu''s birthday banquet and in this square, Jane Mo and Gu Beichen tango: Jane Mo, what''s the craziest thing you''ve ever done? Jian Mo thinks Shen Chu is a little strange today: marry president gu! Shen Chu smiled at the corners of his mouth and felt that this answer was Jian Mo''s style. She didn''t reply again. She just looked at the child with the fairy stick in front playing "Jian Mo, if life can never be once, I also want to be crazy once like you..." Shen Chu said, with a self mocking smile on his mouth. ¡­¡­ "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen put down the hair dryer and gently combed Jian Mo''s hair that had reached his back. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen from the mirror. "Shen Chu is a little strange." "Huh?" Jane Mo fanned her eyelashes and looked at Gu Beichen: "ah Chen..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered gently, put down his comb, leaned on the dressing table, and looked at Jian mo. "What''s the craziest thing you''ve ever done?" Asked Jane mo. Gu Beichen drooped his eyes and said with a smile, "I divorced you and wanted to propose again... And then I returned the oolong." Then he smiled helplessly, "do you know what Yunze said about me?" Jane Mo remembered that day when her mother left and the man wanted to divorce her It''s because they didn''t confess to each other. In fact, many times in life are missed because they are not frank enough... They are always afraid of something, but they pass by in the end! "Say what?" Jane Mo''s mouth was filled with a smile. She didn''t find that her thoughts were pulled away by Gu Beichen. "Well..." Gu Beichen deliberately dragged down the tone before saying, "nozuonodie!" "..." Jane Mo was stunned at first, and then ''ha ha'' smiled. Gu Beichen sighed, "I wanted to hit the wine bottle directly on his head at that time..." Jane Mo thought about the scene and suddenly laughed more recklessly, "ha ha, I''m so happy... Nozuonodie! What Yunze said is so appropriate..." "Are you laughing at me?" Gu Beichen pretends to be dissatisfied. Jian Mo is still laughing, "the facts are clearly revealed... Hahaha..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s uncontrollable smile, and the ink pupil gradually became deep. Jian Mo smiled, felt Gu Beichen''s gradually hot sight, and subconsciously looked at the past Gu Beichen leaned down in time. When the handsome face at the bottom of her eyes grew bigger and bigger, her thin lips fell on her smiling lips Chapter 860 Intoxicated night, low and shallow beautiful sound "Husband, I''m so tired..." Jane Mo said with a grunt. Gu Beichen''s eyes are deep, "enjoy and tired..." "..." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and said with eyes like silk, "don''t you know that women''s physical strength is particularly consumed?" Gu Beichen smiled and whispered in her ear, "when you help digestion..." "I......" Jian Mo''s words were interrupted by Gu Beichen''s bad actions. She almost choked at one breath. When she was happy, she looked at Gu Beichen''s evil appearance and said softly, "I''m speechless." Gu Beichen''s smile was so charming that he naturally didn''t covet his own enjoyment, which really made Jian Mo tired. One is reluctant, the other is her body. Now he is not allowed to go on without restraint Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo, put his chin against her head, said "good night" to each other, and fell asleep. Of course, this dream is just the fatigue of Jian Mo''s body tossed by Gu Beichen. Without enough time to think about anything, she controlled her body and fell asleep In the dark, Gu Beichen absorbed the breath of Jian Mo, but his brain was running at full speed. Although he thought about all the possibilities, in the end, if a person knows another person, he can''t know all about him. Only by giving up all your thoughts and completely standing from the perspective of another person, can you understand some things ¡­¡­ Late at night in Los Angeles, it was cold again. There is no heating or air conditioning in the dilapidated cabin... Only an old heater makes a "bare" sound and brings a little warmth at the same time. Gu mohuai watched the morning news. The means of the Dragon empire are sharp. The professional public relations team has covered many subordinate industries of the media. Undoubtedly... The shooting incident in the amusement park is quite sharp compared with the normal speed. ''dong Dong! Dong... Dong! " There was a deliberate rhythmic knock on the door. Gu muhuai twisted the center of his eyebrows and then got up to open the door. Ge Mengru carried two large supermarket bags filled with convenient food and water, as well as some beer and daily necessities. "Didn''t I tell you not to come?" Said with a cold face. Ge Mengru pulled the corners of her mouth, looked at the dirty room, put down the shopping bag, "thinking that you''re almost finished..." said, and she began to clean up, "moreover, it''s so late for the Chinese New Year that no one will find it." Gu mohuai didn''t bother about this anymore. He went to the shopping bag, pulled out a can of beer, opened it and drank "My daughter will be ready for surgery after the new year," Ge Mengru said calmly. "Everything is the same as you expected." Gu mohuai hissed coldly and didn''t answer. Ge Mengru glanced at him and continued to pack up Whether she was almost "hit" by Jian Mo at the beginning, or went to the hospital later, Gu Beichen appeared, recognized her and threatened her with her daughter... It was all Gu muhuai''s trick. It''s just, she doesn''t understand. Since she was asked to hide the account book in those years, why did she do so much now just to let Gu Beichen find out? Thinking of this, GE Mengru looked at Gu mohuai again She knew that he had no feelings for her, and his daughter was always his daughter. Even if he rejected her before, he was still willing to find a way when her daughter was ill. Even, in order to let his daughter go to a good hospital for treatment, he was willing to exchange the account book he hid in that year. Thinking of this, GE Mengru''s mood of packing up her things was obviously cheerful. Gu mohuai looked at GE Mengru''s bending action, sneered and continued to drink beer He doesn''t know what GE Mengru thinks, but he just wants her to think so! His daughter? Hehe How could he have a daughter with her? Gu mohuai took back his sight, his eyes fell on the small TV, and his mouth was filled with cold hum He can''t have children! Thinking about this, Gu mohuai looked up and poured all the beer into his mouth. Then he heard a "click" and the cans were pinched flat. Ge Mengru was surprised by the sudden sound, turned and looked at Gu mohuai. He indifferently threw the flattened can onto the table. "It''s all right. Go back early..." Gu murhuai''s indifferent voice overflowed. "These things should be enough for a week. Don''t come this week." "Then you..." Ge Mengru just opened his mouth and looked up at Gu''s silent vision and was scared to silence. "I... then I''ll go first." "Yes!" Ge Mengru was a little sad in her heart. She pulled the corners of her mouth and found that she couldn''t laugh. Then she leaned over to take the sorted garbage and left the hut In the dark night, only a few scattered stars hung in the ink sky. After midnight, even the new year, the residential area has become quiet everywhere. "Er Jing," Xiao Qiang leaned against the wall, looked at his back hidden in the depths of the alley and said, "why don''t you do it directly?" Xiao Jing looked at Xiao Qiang, motioned, turned and walked in the other direction, "after being deprived of real power and economy by Chen Shao, the second uncle still has money to bloom, and can drive some people... Don''t you think it''s strange?" "Maybe it''s the private money saved before." Xiao Qiang said unintentionally. In his words, there was an obvious joke. Private money Xiao Jing''s sight is deep. Xu has been with Gu Beichen for a long time. Now his breath is always a little cold under evil cunning. Billions of private money, as if a little too much! Xiao Jing sneered and looked sideways as he passed the alley in front of Gu mohuai''s cabin I''m afraid this private money is more than the red flower list. Xiao Jing and Xiao Qiang get on the bus and Xiao Qiang drives. Well, it''s only when I''m with Xiao Qiang that Xiao Jing thinks he can pretend to force... He still has a position! Taking out his mobile phone, Xiao Jing looked at the time and sent a text message to Gu Beichen: the second uncle''s location has been determined. I''m going to see who else will contact in the next few days. Gu Beichen''s mobile phone is silent, but the screen flashes. He first confirmed that Jianmo was asleep and there was no sign of waking up. Then he slowly pulled out his arm, got out of bed with his mobile phone and went outside the suite Standing on the balcony, the cool wind blows my face, which makes people wake up a lot. Gu Beichen dialed Xiao Jing''s phone, "followed Ge Mengru?" "Yes." Xiao Jing answered and said with a laugh, "unexpectedly, the second uncle has a lot of love debts..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Even though Xiao Jing was separated by the wireless wave, he seemed to feel the cold on him. Secretly grinned. Xiao Jing asked, "Chen Shao, does the cat catch the mouse or does the mouse catch the cat?" "Since the second uncle likes to be a cat and control everything," Gu Beichen said coldly, "let''s be mice for once..." Chapter 861 "That young lady there..." Xiao Jing was a little worried. "I can only try not to let her think." Gu Beichen''s voice was a little deep, "solve it as soon as possible, so as to find a way to treat her thoroughly." "Yes." Xiao Jing answered, "the psychologist has contacted well. I will inform Shen Chu first tomorrow..." After all, it''s Shen Chu''s "friend". Mrs. Shao is so smart. Don''t look back and see any clues... Otherwise, it must be him! Alas Xiao Jing looked out of the car with a slight sadness. Following Chen Shao is really an important turning point in his life... But it is also the beginning of the "tragedy" of his life. After a few more words, Gu Beichen hung up. The seaside city has warmed up. Although the wind at night is a little cool, it is already very comfortable. A soft voice came from behind. Gu Beichen''s eyes suddenly looked cold and looked back... He saw J''s slippers and walked over with a bleary look. "Why haven''t you slept yet?" J said, and he was already on the swing chair. "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen asked with eagle eyes. J weakly fanned his eyes and rubbed them. He felt a little sober. "I came out for a glass of water and saw you here..." after a pause, he said, "I texted Qin Shao at night and talked about the situation of the playground... Qin Shao said that it was a human bomb?" Waiting for Gu Beichen to confirm, J kept looking at him When seeing Gu Beichen''s eyes become familiar, J hurriedly said, "don''t worry, I didn''t let Xiaojie know." After J said this, Gu Beichen restrained his anger a little, but made a "um" sound in his throat. J is different. He has been in Mo palace for several years and is directly under Shi Shaoqin. Have you seen anything bloody? "Tut Tut, it seems that the Dragon owl can''t do it..." J glanced. "His territory can''t be controlled." Then there was a trace of pride in the bottom of his eyes Of course, such complacency has nothing to do with himself. It is entirely due to the worship of Shi Shaoqin. Gu Beichen didn''t argue with J. in fact, some aspects of J''s world are still very pure. "No one can be comprehensive everywhere..." he said slowly, "go back to sleep and go to the experience Hall tomorrow." "Yes." J was obedient. He stood up and suddenly thought of something and said, "you owe me the playground twice, don''t you?" Gu Beichen looked at J with a serious face. Afraid of his repentance, he smiled, "well, I won''t forget..." After hearing this, J was satisfied and turned to drink water, then went back to his bedroom and continued to sleep. Gu Beichen didn''t stay much and went back to his bedroom. He couldn''t rule out the damage. Then he had to minimize the damage. ¡­¡­ New York. Shi Shaoqin is drinking coffee on the rooftop of the drug research room, which has been renovated into a leisure area. On the small table in front of me, there are computers, and sometimes the sound of receiving e-mail comes. He didn''t pay attention, but looked away, a pair of narrow eyes, unable to see the indifference in the depths The mobile phone vibrated on the small table at the right time. Shi Shaoqin calmly took back his sight, put down the coffee cup and picked up the mobile phone at the same time. After seeing the call, he picked it up and put it in his ear "Qin Shao, I found it." On the phone, awei''s voice came. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were deep. "What are the people of the Dragon owl going to do?" "Take care of Beichen''s deployment and plan to start..." awei''s voice was a little excited. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, "you are not allowed to go there." "Why?" Awedang asked. Shi Shaoqin just glanced at the computer screen. When he saw that the title of an email was some characters, he clicked on it and said, "this time I''m not trying to block Gu Beichen." he looked at the email and his eyes became gloomy. "I want no accident!" Awei was hostile to Gu Beichen, although he met a considerable opponent. Let him pass this time. He will find Gu Beichen. Even if it is finally solved, he will naturally circle around However, he needs to solve it as soon as possible. Only when it is solved, he "owes" Gu Beichen''s life, even if it is returned. "I know..." awei''s tone was a little stuffy. He looked at the news he had just got and thought for a few seconds before he said, "Qin Shao, Lu Yinping escaped from prison." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes suddenly gathered, and a cold voice came at the right time, "if I let you go, aren''t you going to say?" I felt a little pressure in my heart. Awei''s heart suddenly shook, "I..." He didn''t go on because, indeed, he didn''t intend to say. Lu Yinping is also a character. He is arrogant, but sometimes he knows how to leave a way for himself at the right time. This is much smarter than Luo Songxian. It''s more a "prison break" than a deliberate loosening of Interpol obtained from his previous relationship Such looseness will not be known by outsiders, and there will only be whitewashed and pressed down. At that time, give Gu Beichen a surprise bomb... Thinking of this, awei''s eyes are excited. Unfortunately, such excitement lasted only a few seconds, "I''ll solve this person..." "Don''t let me find the next time," Shi Shaoqin looked at the email. He didn''t know whether it was because of the email or because of awei, whose beautiful face was shrouded in haze. "I don''t like people who are not obedient." Awei swallowed secretly and replied with a stuffy voice, "yes, Qin Shao!" Shi Shaoqin hung up the phone, but his eyes still didn''t leave the email. However, after reading it, the cold smile gradually overflowed from the corners of his good-looking mouth... Then he deleted the email. Under the instruction of deleting the dialog box, there is a dazzling sentence "Since Mo palace doesn''t obey the rules, don''t blame me for being rude!" In a moment, Shi Shaoqin had recovered his usual coldness. Turning his head, he looked down on the statue of liberty in the distance, and his gentle voice spilled over his beautiful lips: "subeizen, I want to see. Why are you so rude?!" In the air, because of Shi Shaoqin''s words, it condensed a cold breath What else can a woman who can''t even catch a man do?! Xi Cheng''s excited steps stopped. Standing at the entrance of the rooftop, looking at Shi Shaoqin in front of him, he suddenly didn''t know whether to come forward. Qin Shao is obviously in a bad mood at the moment, but if he turns back and says about star... I''m afraid not! Shi Shaoqin looked at the past indifferently, and his narrow eyes narrowed slightly. Xi Cheng only felt that the two lights were like sharp blades across him. He suddenly fought a cold war and hurried forward, "Qin Shao..." He shouted, obviously unable to contain the excitement under his vanity of "seeking praise". "Say!" A word, full of unspeakable pressure. Xi Cheng grinned and said, "star life has rebounded by 30%!" Chapter 862 Shi Shaoqin didn''t move or even react. He just looked at Xi Cheng quietly with a pair of narrow and deep eyes Xi Cheng was still laughing, but after a while, he felt fluffy in his heart, and the soles of his feet were surrounded by a chill from Shi Shaoqin''s "staring" line of sight. Secretly swallowed, Xi Cheng pulled his mouth a little embarrassed, "Qin... Qin Shao?" He was at a loss, "that... I said... Star''s life picked up..." He hesitated and couldn''t guess what Shi Shaoqin was thinking at the moment. Because Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak all the time, Xi Cheng only felt that the air around him gradually condensed and made people breathe heavily. "You..." Shi Shaoqin gently opened his lips and asked with a little doubt in his voice, "what did you just say?" "..." Xi Cheng pulled again uncontrollably and said quietly, "I said... Star''s life has rebounded by 30%..." There is something in the depths of the eye, circle by circle, such a shallow smile, so uncontrolled spread Xi Cheng was stunned. He had been around Qin Shao for so long and had never seen Qin Shao smile like this It''s like the purest child gets the candy he dreams of. Sweet smile "Teng" for a moment, Shi Shaoqin suddenly stood up... Due to his strength, the chair behind him leaned back uncontrollably, shook a few times, and then fell back into the distance. However, while the chair was stable, Shi Shaoqin had strided across the Xi City and walked under the roof Xi Cheng was frozen in place, and some couldn''t react. "Qin Shao, this is..." Xi Cheng muttered to himself. At the same time, he looked at the figure that had disappeared at the entrance of the rooftop, "... How happy!" Shi Shaoqin is really happy. His steps have lost their calm in the past and are somewhat eager. He didn''t know that he could have such joy and feeling... It''s like the whole world can make people greedy. Thinking like this, Shi Shaoqin''s pace accelerated a bit... From the drug research institute directly to the hospital next door. "Qin Shao..." Meno didn''t expect Shi Shaoqin to come so fast, but it''s not surprising to change his mind. Star is quite special for Shi Shaoqin. Although Shi Shaoqin was anxious, he still disinfected seriously before going to the insulation room. No one came in. Every time he came to see star, he liked to be alone. He watched it quietly for a while and left... Meno and they were used to it. The curve on the faint heart rate instrument was almost flat, but now, the undulating radian is obvious. Shi Shaoqin seemed to find something very wonderful. His eyes fell on star''s face in the incubator, and a smile spread from the corners of his mouth, "little guy, keep trying... Huh?" No one answered, but Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful handsome face was unbridled and shrouded in a smile. You are indeed my star. Your existence makes me seem to be clear Shi Shaoqin "touched" star''s little face. Even across the incubator, he seemed to be able to touch the soft little face. ¡­¡­ At night, it is gradually dispersed in the faint sound of firecrackers. The dawn light penetrates the thick clouds and lazily falls on the sea surface of Haibin city. The wave light makes people feel that time is only good and can''t live up to it. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo had breakfast in the hotel and went to the experience Hall of transformers. Because it hasn''t been opened yet, except for their family, that is, some staff. Of course, these staff are all arranged by dragon Owl... And here is also a subsidiary of dragon Empire and a subsidiary of Longteng. Jane Mo has little interest in these angular "robots", but it definitely has a strong attraction for three men and boys. Jian Mo sat in the rest area with hot milk tea in her hand and watched three people dressed as transformed robots "Duel" there! Jian Jie of Bumblebee, J of Optimus Prime, um... Gu Beichen is a villain, Megatron. Two to one. Although J is a computer genius, unfortunately, no matter how high the grade of the two children is, they all lost in Gu Beichen''s hand "I don''t want to take my children..." J was very dissatisfied. Jian Jie nodded approvingly, "Hmm!" Gu Beichen smiled, took the water handed over by the staff and drank, "if you want to win, you can only rely on yourself..." Jane Jie thought seriously and agreed more. Then he looked at J contemptuously and said with poison: "Optimus Prime?! you can''t even beat Megatron... How can you be a leader?" J tilted his mouth, because Jian Jie said the truth, but he didn''t refute it. He just looked at Gu Beichen smiling, and his eyes gradually overflowed with worship. In the past, he only worshipped Qin Shao. He thought his brain was so good that he controlled such a big root of "crime", but there was no way for him, whether it was the power of darkness or light. Now, he likes Gu Beichen He is smart, but unlike Qin Shao''s control of human nature, this man always controls people without showing mountains and dew! In fact, many times, many people don''t have a pure mind to see clearly J sees that Shi Shaoqin controls human nature, while Gu Beichen controls people''s hearts... But many people can''t see it clearly. Maybe not willing to see, but not willing to see! Ye Chenyu shuttles through the city in his humble SUV. Due to the Chinese new year, the detective agency has received cases all about cheating these two days Either the wife of a senior official wants to catch a junior, or the senior manager of a group wants to find evidence of a man''s cheating in order to get the biggest compensation for divorce. Ye Chenyu doesn''t like such cases. For some reason, or because it''s not good to hear. At the beginning, his mother was a little third child Even if there is more love, it can''t be avoided. He is the product of cheating! The car phone suddenly rang. Ye Chenyu looked at it and pressed the answer button while staring slightly. "Xiao Yu, are you coming back today?" On the phone, a woman''s soft voice came. "What''s the matter?" Ye Chenyu smiled at the corner of his mouth. "Why did mom suddenly think of it and call me back?" Since my father left, my mother''s spirit has gone wrong... Her world seems to live in memories. Go home for dinner? Hehe, which time to go back is not a kind of torture? "You come back..." mother Ye''s voice suddenly became irresistible, "just noon!" The words fell, and ye Chenyu was not given a chance to speak. Mother Ye hung up the phone Ye Chenyu frowned immediately, and some uneasiness in his heart spread... It was as if what he was worried about had happened. Chapter 863 Ye Chenyu''s face was a little stiff. His eyes narrowed slightly to the front. When he opened it, he quickly turned the steering wheel... A sharp turn, and the car had turned back The speed was a little fast, and the whistle sounded everywhere on the streets of Los Angeles near noon. ''squeak - '' The screeching sound of the brake belt moving the tire rubbing the ground came. Ye Chenyu looked coldly at the two-story villa on one side. This place was bought by my father for my mother... My father has left for so long, and my mother has never left. Did not leave, that is to say, she did not leave the scope of the villa. The biggest leisure is sitting by the fountain in the back garden in a daze... Because that''s where Dad likes to sit and chat with his mother every time he comes. Ye Chenyu closed his eyes and cut off his memory. Then he loosened his seat belt and opened the door to get off As ye Chenyu walked toward the villa, he pressed the code lock. When he heard the "click", his expression was obviously dignified. When he opened the door, ye Chenyu had just entered the yard when he saw his mother standing next to the fence full of roses in summer As soon as his face changed, he hurried forward and took off his coat as he walked. When putting it on mother ye, ye Chenyu obviously had a bad face. "Mom, what are you doing? Wearing so little, do you want to make yourself sick here?" Although the sun is fine today, it is still on the tail of winter, and there is still a chill in the air. Mother Ye looked at Ye Chenyu with a sullen breath on her face. "Are you investigating your father''s death?" Yes, but I''m sure. Ye Chenyu clenched his teeth secretly. He knew... Gu mohuai would come to find his mother! "Well..." "What are you going to do?" Mother Ye''s eyes suddenly widened, and her pupils reflected uncontrollable violence, "you are a son of man, don''t you need to do something?" Speaking of the end, mother Ye roared. It looked ferocious and frightening When ye Chenyu was a child, she thought that her mother was the most gentle woman in the world. She always snuggled up to her father with a smile and said something. At that time, he didn''t know that his father was not only his father, but also Mo Shaochen''s father! "What did Gu muhuai tell you?" Ye Chenyu''s voice was a little dignified, "or, what do you want me to do?" Mother Ye stared madly, "don''t you need someone to be responsible for your father''s death?" She could have had a happy home, she could But Mo Huai is dead, he is dead! Looking at the grimness on mother Ye''s face, ye Chenyu''s heart wrenched fiercely, "Mom, Jane Zhanfeng has been dead for seven years!" "Doesn''t he have a daughter?" Mother Ye grabbed Ye Chenyu and said, "it''s natural for the father to repay the daughter..." Ye Chenyu looked at mother Ye''s face and said nothing. Until, Mrs. Ye shook him hard and shouted, "do you not want to avenge your father? What did you say? You said you wanted your father to die and get retribution... Did you say that? Ah?!" "Yes..." Ye Chenyu seemed to be contaminated with the cruelty of mother Ye. The evil charm had been replaced by indifference. In his eyes, he was dissatisfied with the coldness under the evil. "Then what are you hesitating about?" Mother Ye pushed Ye Chenyu away. Because the action was too big, her coat fell to the ground. A gust of wind blew, with the feeling of rustling in the sun. "Ye Chenyu," mother Ye''s eyes widened. In that way, it has reached the edge of madness and will erupt at any time. "If you still recognize me as your father''s son... Go and avenge your father..." For the word "revenge", mother Ye squeezed her teeth with all her strength. Ye Chenyu seems to be frozen in an instant Didn''t he start a detective agency just to investigate what happened that year? He wants revenge. It has been confirmed that it is Jian Zhanfeng. Can he escape this responsibility because Jian Zhanfeng is dead? At that time, the court did not find Jian Zhanfeng guilty, but said that his father was speeding and even was caught by surveillance... He had a big quarrel with Cen Yulan in the car, which caused the accident. And Jane Zhanfeng, no responsibility! Seeing that ye Chenyu didn''t speak, mother Ye just turned angrily and entered the villa, "you come in with me!" Ye Chenyu frowned and followed in After mother ye entered the house, she began to turn things. Ye Chenyu didn''t know what she was going to do, so she stood in place and waited. After a while, mother Ye found something similar to a recording pen in the crack of the sofa... And that thing is indeed a recording pen. Throw it to Ye Chenyu. Mother ye said with scarlet eyes: "listen... How did they harm us in those years!" Ye Chenyu frowned slightly and opened the recorder. "Sister, I really don''t know what to do?" First, a woman''s voice came through anxiously, "Mo Huai and I have been together for so many years, and Shaochen is so big. Now he wants to divorce me..." "Why?" Then another woman''s voice came with a cold sneer under arrogance, "he Mo Huai married you when he wanted to take advantage of our family relationship... Now that the business is going on, he wants to kick you out? Which is so easy?" Two voices, do not think, ye Chenyu also understand that it is Cen Yulan and Cen Lanxi. "But what can I do?" CEN Yulan said, "there are wild seeds outside him..." "Hum, she Mo Huai wants double harvest, and you''ll let it go?" CEN Lanxi sneered, "he''s dreaming!" "What am I going to do?" "You promise him first," said Cen Lanxi fiercely. "Then, ask that bitch and bitch to come out... It''s solved!" "But..." "Where is there but?" CEN Lanxi sneered, "I''ll find someone for you later and let Mo Huai die." "What do you mean?" CEN Lanxi snorted, "Yuanda''s Jane Zhanfeng has something to do with the old second-hand recently. If you look back, you can let him do it... Anyway, take some medicine and take some photos of bitch and Jane Zhanfeng. Mo Huai doesn''t doubt it? Even compared with the DNA of cheap species, my family can''t get a result in Los Angeles?" "Elder sister, you mean..." Cen Yulan paused, "take indecent photos of Jane Zhanfeng and the bitch, and then frame up that bitch as not Mo Huai''s child?" "What is false accusation?" CEN Lanxi smiled, "you should remember that if you want to cheat others, you must cheat yourself first..." A bitch, a bitch... Ye Chenyu''s face has long been dark. When hearing the last, ye Chenyu''s face was already shrouded in the lingering ruthlessness This thing didn''t work out because my father and Cen Yulan had a car accident... Who knows if Jian Zhanfeng was an accident? Maybe it''s not an accident If there was no special reason that day, my mother should be in my father''s car, not Cen Yulan! Why didn''t Jane Zhanfeng do anything in the end? Although Cen Lanxi seemed to bite, the court finally ruled that Jian Zhanfeng was not at fault Why? As Cen Lanxi said, the influence of the Gu family in Los Angeles, let alone whether Jane Zhanfeng has done it or not, can she really escape even if she wants to find someone to vent her anger for her sister and brother-in-law? The sound of "quack" came from the hand holding the recording pen Ye Chenyu sneered. What is he hesitating about these two days? Turning around, ye Chenyu didn''t say anything to his mother, but clenched the recording pen tightly and left the villa The sunshine near noon is dazzling, but it can''t warm Ye Chenyu''s cold heart. His eyes fell gloomily in front of him, gritted his teeth and said, "Gu Beichen, Jian mo... If you die, will Cen Lanxi be very painful?" Chapter 864 The transformers stadium is so big that you can''t experience it all in one morning There is a restaurant in the experience hall, which is not officially open. However, because of Gu Beichen, they also prepared some ingredients. Jane Mo cooks by herself, while Jane Jie and j help. Gu Beichen''s phone vibrated in his pocket. He wiped his hand and took it out. Seeing that it was Xiao Jing, he picked it up and walked outside "Follow someone?" Although Gu Beichen was asking, it was obvious that he was sure. Xiao Jing answered, "what a headache..." he sighed, "Chen Shao, you said, how could the old lady adopt such a white eyed wolf?!" "Huh?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "I have to doubt that the second uncle started the layout of this bureau many years ago... I really don''t know what he wants to do and what his purpose is?" Xiao Jing said casually, "Why are so many irrelevant people pulled out now, but they all have countless entanglements?!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gradually deepened, "who?" "The detective agency Chu Shao was looking for..." Xiao Jing flattened the car seat, closed his eyes and rubbed his temples. "Chen Shao, you must not know... Your little uncle has a woman outside." "I know..." Gu Beichen''s faint voice came. "What?" Xiao Jing suddenly opened his eyes and looked surprised, "do you know?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly and turned around. He just saw J lying at the door of the canteen. He motioned. J went back to the canteen to continue preparing. "Ye Chenyu is the son of his little uncle," Gu Beichen said indifferently with his eagle eyes narrowed. "Shaochen''s half brother." Poof Xiao Jing was a little choked by his saliva. After a while, he couldn''t react. "You should have known..." Xiao Jing muttered with some dissatisfaction. "Then Chen Shao also knows that the second uncle may use them?" "Yes, you confirmed it." "Then you let him participate in the things that Yuanda did in those years..." Xiao Jing was speechless. "Chen Shao, you are really brave." "It''s ok..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth calmly and walked towards the whole glass window. Looking at the sun hidden by dark glass outside, the ink pupil was slightly cold. "Let him toss around. I''ll go back in two or three days." "Close the net when you come back?" Xiao Jing asked with an eyebrow, "that''s..." "Just follow your steps." Gu Beichen''s voice was always faint, "I''ve done too much. Why don''t you know that the second uncle is so sensitive?" "Well, good!" Xiao Jing answered and seemed to ask, "Chen Shao, this time..." "I won''t let go," Gu Beichen''s voice said with a deep breath. "Grandma didn''t give up at the beginning, because she was the only child of her old comrade in arms... But I''ve given him too many opportunities." If the opportunity given to the second uncle is to let him hurt Mo''er and Xiao Jie, then he can only be a bad man. Promise grandma... He can''t do it! Xiao Jing seems to be relieved. He has been following Chen for a long time and knows... If this person decides, he can''t change. After hanging up the phone, the atmosphere in the venue was obviously dignified. Gu Beichen didn''t turn back to the canteen until he restrained his anger, but it was in a mess that J and Jian Jie had been fighting. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen reluctantly. "Take care of it. There''s no way to cook..." "Let them play." Gu Beichen spoiled a smile and went to help Jane Mo wash the dishes. "J is a big child, and Xiao Jie is with him. Don''t you think he looks like a child?" Jian Mo smiled and nodded. "When you are smart, the way of communication is simple... Milk bags will not be superior because of IQ problems." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and smiled with Jian Mo while chatting and preparing lunch. For ordinary people, such plain happiness is everyday. However, for those who stand at the top, it is indeed luxurious and rare. In the year of Haibin City, the shooting incident in the amusement park under the Dragon Empire became subtle. However, the president of the Dragon Empire came to solve it in person and quickly put it under control. For the next few days, she played with her children in the dark. Fortunately, after passing the playground, it seems that everything becomes quiet. Gu Beichen certainly won''t think that his people, the Dragon owl and Shi Shaoqin''s people have been airtight. It''s just clear that long Ziyi came to the seaside city and what some people did in the playground The president of the Dragon Empire, who looks like a spring breeze but "kills" invisible in conversation and laughter, is afraid that similar things will not be allowed to happen under his nose. "Alas..." J sighed greatly. Jane morhu smiled and listened to Jane Jie''s mouth poison: "it''s not that she has no chance to be here in her lifetime. What''s it like when her life has come to an end?" J glanced sideways at Jian Jie and continued to sigh, "you don''t understand!" "Don''t you just think you''re not finished... I don''t understand?!" Jane Jie wrinkled his little nose, didn''t bother to say anything to j, and turned to continue packing. While Jane Mo tidied up for J, she always inadvertently looked at Gu Beichen who called on the balcony... Deep in her eyes, mixed with a trace of worry. Xu is too happy these two days. At least, Gu Beichen doesn''t have many opportunities for her to think about anything, no matter day or night. Why does this man do this? Jane Mo seems to feel it a little He smiled at the corners of his mouth, and Jane Mo hung her eyes and continued to clean up. I didn''t have much luggage when I came. When I left, I bought a lot of things. The morning sun poured down on Gu Beichen. His eyes fell deeply on the swimming pool in the hotel garden. "There is only one chance... Failure is not allowed." Xiao Jing answered, "I understand." Gu muhuai is a crafty fox. If we let him know that Chen has given him such a big game this time, we will only be more careful next time. "Welcome to take dragon Empire Airlines flight z7219 and arrive at the destination Luocheng. It will be in two hours and fifteen minutes..." The plane slid slowly and went up the path. At the right time, the captain''s soft voice came Jian Mo looked sideways. When she looked at the big words "Haibin" farther and farther away, her line of sight was a little blurred. "What do you think?" Gu Beichen asked sideways. Jane Mo took back her sight and shook her head with a smile. "I think it''s good to be calm and happy at such a time." Gu Beichen explored his long arm, gently hugged Jian Mo into his arms, kissed her gently on her forehead, and then slowly opened his mouth: "go back and check your body. It''s no big problem. When I arrange the work for the first half of the year, we''ll travel... Huh?" "Travel?" Jian Mo was slightly stunned and looked at Gu Beichen. It was clear that there was something at the bottom of her eyes. However, she was afraid that she had heard wrong and wanted to endure to be sure again. Chapter 865 "Do you want to see the birds with shallow eyes, Gu Chen, who wants to spread around?" he asked. "Don''t you want to smile?" Jane Mo''s smile grew bigger and bigger. She just smiled and didn''t say anything. Because the people who know you are by your side, you don''t need to say anything The plane began to climb. J and Jianjie sat together. They didn''t know what to whisper. Jianjie''s little face was full of smiles Jane Mo leaned against her seat and looked at the white clouds curling outside the small window. She suddenly felt that maybe... She was not as melancholy as she thought. Xiao Yan, mom won''t forget you, but... Mom doesn''t want to worry about you all the time. I just hope we can be mother and son if we have the chance With rare ease, Jane Mo felt selfish again. Selfishly, I want to make myself feel better and Gu Beichen feel better... To let go of myself is to let go of others, isn''t it? "You are so busy. How long do you have time to go with me?" Jane Mo looked back and asked suddenly. Gu Beichen supported the armrest with his arm and chin on the back of his hand. He looked at Jian Mo lazily and vaguely, "how long do you want?" "So many people want to go, whether they want to go at one time or... Separate." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "Together..." Gu Beichen smiled faintly. "Don''t you want to compare? If you separate, you won''t feel it." "It will take a long time..." Jane Mo frowned slightly. No matter how tight... It is estimated that it will take at least three or four months, but obviously, Gu Beichen can''t let go of the emperor for so long. As if to see Jian Mo''s idea, Gu Beichen said naturally on his face, "isn''t there still Xiao Jing?" "..." Jane Mo listened and pulled out uncontrollably. "I seem to hear someone''s assistant say that when he is finished, someone will give him a big holiday!" "Yes, I''m finished..." Gu Beichen took it for granted more and more. "But I have to accompany you to study architectural design. I''m really busy!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth, but she was speechless about Gu Beichen''s reason. "You''re looking for this reason..." Jane Mo burst out laughing, "I can''t refute it." "Of course..." "Sneeze!" While Gu Beichen answered with a smile, Xiao Jing suddenly sneezed. Xiao Nan gave him a cold look, "two scenes?" "It''s all right, just itch your nose..." Xiao Jing rubbed his nose and didn''t care too much. He continued to talk about his plan. "Chen Shao, are you sure Ye Chenyu will do it today?" Xiao Yu leaned on the cabinet with his arms around his chest, and his eyes were indifferent. Xiao Jing glanced at him, "I''m not sure..." "..." Xiao Nan immediately frowned. After the last incident in San Francisco, she is still not in good health and can''t directly participate in this action. "Chen Shao, can you handle it alone?" "There are Shi Shaoqin''s people..." Xiao Jing saw everyone looking at him suspiciously and said, "I don''t know when they collaborated." He shrugged. "It is estimated that it has something to do with the children who miss Mrs. Shi. After all, Shi Shaoqin owes Chen one life less." Xiao Nan didn''t think much, just nodded and calmly arranged tasks for several people. Last time Xiao Jing had determined the place, but when he was not careful, he was transferred by Gu mohuai If you can''t catch it this time, Gu mohuai will only be smarter. It''s not easy to catch it again! Everything was going on nervously. On the last day of the long New Year holiday, when everyone lamented that the holiday was fast and tired and would end in a blink of an eye, Los Angeles was shrouded in a haze. "Mom, go shopping, you sleep first..." Ge Mengru said to her daughter on the hospital bed and left the hospital. She''s been upset since last night. Such uneasiness continued until now and became more and more victorious. Not only did it not eliminate a little, but even became more and more flustered. After leaving Huakang hospital, GE Mengru looked around and left towards the tree lined path. While walking, he dialed Gu mohuai''s mobile phone "Hello, the number you dialed cannot be connected for the time being, please redial later! If you need to leave a message, please leave a message after the ''drip'' sound..." "What''s the matter with you now?" Ge Mengru walked quickly and said in a low voice, "I''ve been very flustered. I always feel that something has happened..." Women''s sixth sense has always been strong, especially women who have experienced a lot are more sensitive. From Yuanda, GE Mengru left with her account book, and now she comes back because of her daughter''s illness. It can be said that after hiding for so many years, she has had a reaction to the danger. Ge Mengru turns into a path that can take a super short cut to the convenience store. This road is very shabby and dark, and few people go She''ll be there later. She can avoid a little eyes and ears. Ge Mengru thought and quickened her pace. From time to time, she looked back... For fear that someone would follow. "Ah!" Suddenly, GE Mengru screamed, and then looked at the people standing on the other side of the path, some pale and stepped back a few steps. Li Yunze slightly picked his eyes and looked at GE Mengru funny. "What are you doing so flustered?" As he spoke, he looked at the path as if he didn''t know anything. "The smell on the road is so bad. I''m glad you like to walk..." "I, I..." Ge Mengru laughed at the corners of her mouth. "I''m not sure my daughter is alone in the hospital, thinking of buying it quickly and going back..." "Oh..." Li Yunze nodded as if he could understand, "then go... I''ll go back to the hospital." With that, he made way. Ge Mengru pulled the corners of her mouth and smiled, and then lifted her hesitant steps Just as she crossed Li Yunze, GE Mengru timidly lifted her heart, and her breathing became rough and slow... She didn''t relax a little until she completely crossed him. When people arrived at the door of the convenience store, GE Mengru saw that Li Yunze had gone to the hospital and breathed out secretly, thinking that she had thought more. Ge Mengru went into the convenience store and dialed Gu mohuai''s phone again... Although she knew, she still couldn''t get through. In due time, Li Yunze took his mobile phone and sent a text message to Xiao Qiang: Ge Mengru called twice before and after. The analog signal should have a band. Can you determine the approximate position of Gu mohuai? Xiao Qiang grinned. While replying to Li Yunze''s text message, Xiao Nan called Xiao Jing: "Chen Shao''s estimated range is not wrong, action..." Chapter 866 Gu muhuai carefully stood under the eaves of a house not far away. He didn''t probe to see the people who were besieging him. He was just in the dark, making sure that he wouldn''t refract the light because of the sun, and slightly adjusted the angle After a while, in the depths of the mirror, there were several figures approaching carefully... Looking at the body shape and pace, we knew that they were professionally trained. Gu muhuai hissed coldly, closed the mirror, lowered the brim of his hat and turned around His steps looked calm, but they were very fast. Just as one group of people arranged by Xiao Jing approached, Gu mohuai had left "Brother Jing," said the leader, pressing his headphones, "I don''t see anyone here." Xiao Jing sat in the monitoring car and looked around through the monitor carried by the searcher, "spread out and continue to look!" Chen Shao made a good prediction. Li Shao called Ge Mengru. Xiaoqiang locked in this area... There can''t be no one! Gu mohuai thinks that with the old-fashioned simulator, you can really escape signal tracking? Isn''t it ridiculous that the emperor raised so many people Xiao Jing frowned slightly and suddenly became a little strange. Gu muhuai was forced away from the emperor. The emperor had a communication company. He knew very well that he could track the signal, so he used the oldest analog machine... However, he should also know very well that it was not that he could not track, but at most it was a matter of time. Thinking of this, Xiao Jing''s eyebrows wrinkled a little tighter The mobile phone was rejected at the right time. Xiao Jing took out his eyes and saw that it was Xiao Nan. He picked it up: "sister..." "Er Jing, something''s wrong!" Xiao Nan stood in the devils kiss monitoring room, looking at the video signal linked to Xiao Jing, frowning, "if Gu mohuai was really in this area, but why did he not escape when our people arrived?" Xiao Jing''s eyes sank when reminded by Xiao Nan From the layout many years ago to the two strange things now, Xiao Jing felt that he couldn''t understand what Gu mohuai wanted to do? "If he''s not crazy," Xiao Jing''s face was cold, "that''s intentional!" Xiao Nan is a little uneasy. This uneasiness stems from the crisis response. "See if you can contact chenshao..." Xiao Nan said to Xiao Qiang. Xiao Qiang nodded, his fingers flying away from the upper reaches of the keyboard. After a while, he had made contact with the plane. It''s thanks to Gu Beichen that they took a private plane under the Dragon empire "Chen Shao," the flight attendant smiled and bowed gracefully, "can you come with me?" Jane Mo looked at the flight attendant with some doubts, and then looked at Gu Beichen "I''ll go!" Gu Beichen smiled at Jian Mo, then leaned over and said in a voice that only two people could hear in her ear, "well, I''m not sure she likes me... It''s hard to confess because you''re around!" "..." Jane Mo twitched uncontrollably at the corners of her mouth, and her heart was: how could there be such a shameless man? And this man is still her husband! "Don''t worry," Gu Beichen vowed, "I''m yours and won''t be seduced easily!" "..." Jane Mo was speechless again. God, who''s going to drag the goods away?! Gu Beichen stared angrily at Jian Mo, regardless of the flight attendant being on the side. While getting up, he gently kissed Jian Mo on the cheek, got up as if nothing had happened, and left with the flight attendant Jane Mo''s brain is a little empty, even a little blushing. Although they have a lot of bad interests in private, the airport is a public place... Jian Mo is not as cheeky as Gu Beichen. When he arrived at the work area, the flight attendant handed the flight attendant''s phone to Gu Beichen, "it''s from Los Angeles." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered indifferently. On his cold and carved face, there was no evil charm when he was just talking to Jian mo. The flight attendant nodded slightly and left the working area. Gu Beichen said indifferently, "I''m Gu Beichen..." "Chen Shao," came Xiao Nan''s voice, "there''s something wrong here!" "Huh?" Gu Beichen said. Xiao Nan said the current situation roughly and then said solemnly, "I feel that Gu muhuai knows that we will take action this time. From beginning to end, there is a feeling of teasing us..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil became deep, his thin lips slightly pricked, and his whole body was up and down, with a heavy and fierce look. Even across the distance between heaven and earth, Xiao Nan seemed to feel "Chen Shao, what''s next?" Xiao Nan''s voice is a little dignified. "Tell Xiao Jing that the game of Mouse playing cat stops..." Gu Beichen''s voice is obviously dignified. "Control Gu mohuai as soon as possible." Xiao Nan''s speech is an expansion. After Xiao Qiang heard it, he has sent a message to Xiao Jing. "In addition," Gu Beichen''s heart suddenly twisted, "check the vicinity of the airport." Xiao Nan has a tacit understanding after the "cooperative battle" between foreign countries and Gu Beichen. At present, he doesn''t need to say more. He already understands "I''ll go myself!" Xiao Nan didn''t say much. She had hung up the call signal and went out. "Elder sister," said Xiao Qiang, turning his head and twisting his eyebrows, "your injury..." "I can''t die..." Xiao Nan said coldly. At the same time, the man had opened the door. "Xiaoqiang, keep an eye on it. If you have anything, please contact me and Erjing at any time." "I know." When Xiao Qiang''s words fell, Xiao Nan had disappeared She hurried to Los Angeles International Airport, and Xiao Jing didn''t feel very good. Deliberately found the highest time for the lifting and landing flights to land. Gu Beichen and long Xiao had considered this time, and the airport security had its own defense. However, Gu muhuai''s action at the moment is obviously delaying Xiao Jing and them... Then the purpose is too thought-provoking. "What''s the matter?" Jane Mo felt Gu Beichen coming back and looked up at him. Gu Beichen smiled and took out a plate from behind with a small heart-shaped cake on it, which is Jian Mo''s favorite kiwi fruit flavor mousse "That''s what you did when you went there?" Jane Mo''s eyes are soft and spread with a smile. "Otherwise?" Gu Beichen said, gesturing to Jian Mo to open the table. "Daddy is really good eccentric..." Jane make complaints about Tucao. J hummed, "isn''t it?!" Gu Beichen put the cake on Jian Mo''s small table, sat down and said lazily, "I''m giving you a class. I''ll be better to my lover in the future..." "I can really find reasons for myself!" Jane Jay didn''t make complaints about her face. J kept echoing Jane Mo smiled happily at the corners of her mouth and put a mouth of cake into her mouth. The smile was even sweeter to her heart Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo deeply. She was so smart. If he came out like this, she would think more. However, he didn''t want her to put pressure on him, especially the pressure under speculation Chapter 867 The plane is flying in the air. It''s more than half its journey. After Xiao Jing got the news, his eyes were cold and his body overflowed with the strange smell he hadn''t seen for a long time "You stare," Xiao Jing looked back at the staff who had been on standby, "and report the monitoring situation to me at any time." "Brother Jing wants to go by himself?" "Well..." Xiao Jing said, and opened the door. Here, Gu mohuai is the only one who is familiar with him. After fighting with Chen Shao and his second uncle for so many years, I still know a little about this man''s temperament. Because of the command, all search personnel have started a wide range, but point-to-point search Nearby residents, coming and going, feel a little strange. However, no one meddled. He didn''t stop thinking of time, as if he didn''t want to speed up his pace. Suddenly, a family opened the door. Gu murhuai''s eyes sank. Almost instinctively, he pulled the person who was about to come out back to the house "Ah... Oh!" As soon as the girl made a sound, she was covered by Gu mohuai''s mouth. Suddenly, her eyes widened in horror, and there was a startling "sobbing" in her throat. Gu muhuai was not in the mood to meet the girl at the moment. When he took a knife, the girl fainted. He threw the girl aside and went into the house This area is a shanty town, and the path he just walked is the last row of houses. He jumped out of the window from the house, not far behind is a tributary of the Los Angeles River... It''s obviously a little safer to walk from here. Gu muhuai walked carefully into the house. Just when considering whether there was anyone else in the house, an old lady who looked 70 or 80 years old suddenly came out "Swallow, haven''t you gone out yet?" While the old lady asked, her head tilted slightly and her hand moved forward touching the wall. Gu muhuai frowned, then shook his hand in front of the old lady. He didn''t respond. After he determined that he was blind, he ignored it. Just lean over and miss the old lady''s steps and walk to your house "Swallow?" The old lady shouted again at the right time. Seeing that there was no movement, she whispered, "this girl, I thought I didn''t go out?" While entering the inner room, Gu muhuai looked back at the old lady and flashed in. Almost at the same time, the old lady''s face was shocked, and her steps hurried towards the swallow falling to the ground "Swallow? Swallow... Good sun, don''t scare grandma..." the old lady didn''t dare to speak loudly, but because she was worried, there was no way to curb her fear. Fortunately, Gu muhuai was prying the protective fence on the window with his special tools at the moment, but he didn''t hear The old lady trembled uncontrollably, but even so, she was sober enough to turn over the mobile phone in the swallow''s pocket and quickly dialed "110"! "Brother Jing, I intercepted an alarm call..." while the person on the monitoring car said, he hurriedly transferred the call to Xiao Jing. Xiao Jing listened and looked at his position. He was right here With a cold hum, Xiao Jing has locked the specific range according to the signal section. What Gu mohuai didn''t expect at the moment was that an old lady''s sense of crisis was so strong that she would dress up as a blind man when she saw him Xu didn''t think deeply because of the tight time. If it is normal, such a trick can''t hide from him "Second uncle, be safe..." the panting voice came when Gu muhuai jumped out of the window and rushed into the short but crazy grass. "The game... Is over!" Gu muhuai almost froze. He slowly tilted his head and looked at Xiao Jing... At that moment, the cold light from the bottom of his eyes overflowed! ¡­¡­ "Ladies and gentlemen... The plane is about to land at Los Angeles International Airport..." I heard the information that the airport would land, although Gu Beichen and his family were the only ones on the private plane. Jian Mo subconsciously glanced out of the window and smiled inexplicably at the corners of her mouth. "Think of what, so happy?" Gu Beichen propped up on the armrest and asked softly. Jane Mo looked back at him, "aren''t you happy to go home?" Gu Beichen drooped his eyes and nodded approvingly, "well... It''s really a happy thing for the family to go home together." Jane Mo listened and smiled more at the corners of her mouth The plane continued to descend. When the plane made a harsh sound with a slight bump on the ground, Jane Jie and j looked at each other, and the two children were a little excited. That feeling Well, just go out and find that home is the place you want to stay most. The plane taxied slowly towards the stop At the same time, Gu mohuai has been brought into the police car by the arriving police. "Second uncle, have a word?" Xiao Jing, with some evil spirit, hooked one corner of his mouth, "let me guess... You must be thinking, why didn''t you escape when you found the best place for yourself in such a large area?" Gu mohuai really can''t figure it out. According to his understanding of Gu Beichen, although no one can account for it, it''s really strange to be caught in a jar like this. "Second uncle, don''t worry..." Xiao Jing had a meaningless evil smile on his face. "Chen is less, I''ll give you an explanation." "I can''t understand you when you think about it silently?" The expression on Xiao Jing''s face remained unchanged, but his sight became more and more evil. In that way, there was nothing like the little daughter-in-law who was usually "bullied" by Gu Beichen. It was completely evil and cunning. "What does it matter whether you want it or not?" Xiao Jing sneered, "second uncle, in fact, you know... Chen Shao handed you over to the police. There is no room for maneuver if he doesn''t do anything himself." "Do you really think it''s all right?" Gu mohuai said slowly and gloomily, "Xiao Jing... I''m not a loser. You can take my words to Gu Beichen!" Then, he put a strange smile on the corner of his mouth. That kind of smile has a treachery that people can''t see through. "You mean you still have ye Chenyu''s move?" Xiao Jing slightly picked up the end of the sentence, and then sneered, "second uncle, sometimes the battle line is too long and too many, but it''s not good!" Xiao Jing looked at Gu muhuai''s shocked face, turned around, got off the police car indifferently, said hello to the police officer, and watched the police car leave sight with the sound of sirens However, just as the police car passed by Xiao Jing, Gu mohuai''s mouth overflowed with an incomprehensible smile. Such a smile, there is no just the slightest anger and shock, some, just the pride under the strange. Xiao Jing got into the car and immediately called Xiao Nan, "Gu mohuai caught it. Is Chen Shao their plane here?" Xiao Nan looked ahead. The plane with the logo of the Dragon Empire glided slowly to the position of the special plane, "here..." while saying this, she wanted to run forward. "I don''t know..." suddenly, a voice came with a languid coldness, "what does it look like when the plane is blown up?" Chapter 868 Xiao Nan suddenly stopped, and even the cells all over her body coagulated in an instant Looking sideways, a man in a ground plane maintenance Jumpsuit stood there, his eyes sliding with the private plane that was about to stop in the designated area As if he felt Xiao Nan looking at him, he turned his head to her and smiled at her. "Do you know what it looks like?" Xiao Nan''s eyes sank. At this moment, she didn''t even have time to say anything to the man. She was already running to the plane On the road, he kept making stop gestures towards the position of the cockpit. "The people around Gu Beichen are really cool..." the man sighed. The first reaction to Xiao Nan was not to him, but to stop the plane from entering the designated area. The captain saw Xiao Nan''s gesture, but since he was not a staff member, he just pressed the intercom with the control tower and asked. Xiao Nan is making a stop to clean up while using her mobile phone to call the plane through Xiao Qiang''s system. "Please stop at the designated area..." the control tower sent a command. The captain ignored Xiao Nan and went on. In due time, the voice of the flight attendant requesting a call came from the headset The captain frowned slightly and pressed, "what''s the matter?" "Captain, the people under Xiao Shao said that there may be bombs in the designated area..." the flight attendant''s voice was obviously dignified and nervous. As soon as the captain heard this, he just looked dignified and hurried to connect the control tower again and said the possible situation All this is slow to say, but in a minute or two, the whole airport entered a situation of alert and panic. Are you kidding? There are bombs in the airport... Although they are only in specific areas, they also have a great impact. Jane Mo felt something was wrong. Subconsciously, she looked out of the window The plane that just headed straight ahead and left the private plane apron suddenly turned its direction. Gu Beichen''s eyes slightly coagulated. At the same time, he saw the flight attendant coming, "Chen Shao, for special reasons, the plane will stop in other areas..." As he spoke, the flight attendant obviously had a dignified look at the bottom of his eyes. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and then nodded indifferently. The man in maintenance clothes has been looking at all this indifferently, but the corners of his mouth gradually hold a smile The personnel of the airport, especially the security personnel, have been dispatched. They have even called the police and arranged emergency support from the blasting team. The plane stopped, and almost at the same time, the cabin door opened Gu beichenjunyan was so indifferent that he got off the plane with Jian Mo, Jian Jie and J. Xiao Nan was already waiting. Seeing Gu Beichen coming down, she first looked at Jian Mo, came forward and whispered, "Chen Shao, want..." "Don''t..." Gu Beichen suddenly interrupted Xiao Nan''s speech, and his sight fell on the "maintenance personnel" who had been standing in the distance. "I''ll go over..." Gu Beichen looked back at Jian Mo, "you and Xiao Nan, they''ll wait for me in the hall first, huh?" Jane Mo also looked at the man in the distance and nodded with a smile. Xiao Nan frowned, and there was some doubt in the bottom of her eyes However, since Gu Beichen said so, she didn''t say anything more. She went to the waiting hall with Jane Mo first. Gu Beichen took his pocket with one hand and walked towards the man with indifferent and steady steps As Gu Beichen''s footsteps approached, the evil smile at the corners of his mouth became stronger and stronger. "What are you doing?!" Gu Beichen asked indifferently. Although he was asking, he was obviously sure. "New Year gift..." Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. "Will the people around you be too nervous?" He said, looking across the staff who urgently checked the bomb Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "aren''t you afraid of hanging tags like this?" Ye Chenyu smiled, "what''s none of my business?" He looked evil. "I just said what it would be like if the plane blew up... Your people, start brain repair by themselves. What can I do?" "Under such circumstances, it''s hard for you to say so without thinking..." Gu Beichen sighed, a little helpless, "go and have a drink?" "Have time?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. "There''s still time for a cup of coffee." Gu Beichen smiled at the corners of his mouth. Ye Chenyu shrugged and didn''t say anything. He walked to the airport cafe with Gu Beichen "If the police don''t do it, they can be actors..." Gu Beichen said calmly, "you have no acting skills." "No way..." Ye Chenyu was a little helpless. "I''ve been undercover for so many years and I don''t have any acting skills. I don''t know how many times I''ve died." "This case is over. Are you going back to the bureau?" "It''s hard to say..." Ye Chenyu looked dark. "I just didn''t expect that the case I pursued would finally intersect with Gu mohuai, which can be regarded as returning your favor." "I want to pay it back?" Gu Beichen sneered coldly, "the bigger you are, the more naive you are..." "..." Ye Chenyu twitched at the corners of his mouth, "Gu Beichen, you are really a businessman. You don''t suffer at all." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and smiled. Hearing Ye Chenyu''s posture of accounting, he said, "you think, I''ll help you, but I''ll help Jian mo... I won''t list how important Jian Mo is to you. What''s the matter... Your human feelings for me and my mother over the years can only say that I''m more, not less!" "Chenyu," Gu Beichen said helplessly, "I''m not helping you to return the favor." "I know..." Ye Chenyu put his hands in the trouser pocket of his jumpsuit. "Just, mom said... People should learn to be grateful!" He smiled and looked at Gu Beichen. "Mom, the play was absolutely in place. I was going to take it seriously at that time..." Take care of Beichen smile, think of the weak woman, silently for a man to pay, finally good wait until... But everything has become a bubble, can not help but some astringent. There is nothing wrong with love. It''s just that I met the right person at the wrong time! Gu Beichen and ye Chenyu just talked about a cup of coffee "Gu muhuai should have power in the Bureau." Ye Chenyu said before leaving, "you should know that my undercover task has been delayed for so long." "Since I let the police intervene, I won''t let him have a chance to come out again..." Gu Beichen said faintly, his eyes turned to the window, and his eyes became cold. "Some things, people always have to be responsible for themselves." Ye Chenyu pulled a touch of astringency at the corners of his mouth and didn''t speak. "When are you going to talk to Shaochen about you and your aunt?" Gu Beichen looked back at Ye Chenyu. "After all, you are brothers!" "Don''t want to say..." Ye Chenyu said, "it''s already like this. Let Shaochen keep the beauty of his parents, isn''t it good?" Chapter 869 Gu Beichen was silent, "just decide..." Everyone has their choice. They have been hiding it for so many years. In fact... It''s good to keep the status quo! If it hadn''t been for the accident of his aunt and uncle, he wouldn''t have had his first contact with Jane Zhanfeng. Even, I won''t know the existence of Ye Chenyu and his mother So that later he helped the gentle woman and his children. In fact, many things have a cause before they have a result. Just like... If he didn''t know ye Chenyu and their existence at the beginning, maybe there is a bomb waiting for them today. Gu Beichen and ye Chenyu separated. After a wide-ranging investigation of the airport, the police found no trace of the bomb Finally, the matter was settled by Gu Beichen''s phone. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Nan looked a little strange. "I''m too nervous." Gu Beichen smiled. "At extraordinary times, the play always has to be done enough..." he didn''t say much, but explained, "today''s things, how to deal with them, as for who I met..." "I understand!" Xiao Nan nodded. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and said nothing more. They left the airport together. Xiao Nan drives the car, occasionally glances at Jian Mo in the back seat from the rearview mirror, and then takes back her sight A man tries his best to make use of everything available for a woman. What kind of happiness does this woman get?! Xiao Nan doesn''t know that people like them have no right to know. Since they were adopted by Lord Xiao, their world has only constant tasks and orders that must be completed Xiao Nan sent Gu Beichen directly. They went back to the halfway house. Aunt LAN and aunt Luo had prepared lunch. When they saw several people coming back, their faces were filled with smiles Aunt LAN urged everyone to wash their hands and eat after putting things away "Wait a minute, I''ll go to the company first," Gu Beichen said, looking at Jian Mo packing up there. It felt very warm. "Do you have a rest at home in the afternoon?" "I made an appointment with Shen Chu for afternoon tea..." Jian Mo took the hand-made for Shen Chu aside. "When will your relationship be good..." Gu Beichen seemed to be a little distressed. "I''ll see you as soon as I come back?" That kind of I feel a little strange in my first love with my wife?! Jian Mo looked back at Gu Beichen and smiled, "just want to compare your previous taste with your current taste... Well, what''s the difference." "..." Gu Beichen just felt a little depressed, "Mo''er!" Jian Mo got up, hugged Gu Beichen''s waist, put his cheek on his heart and said slowly, "ah Chen, I just don''t want to lose a friend who may become a good friend... Besides, there''s nothing wrong with Shen Chu who wanted to be with you before." Gu Beichen knows that Jane has misunderstood his meaning, but it''s good Save this sensitive little woman, go back to see a psychologist, more pressure. "It''s all right," Gu Beichen said with a funny smile in his mouth. "I don''t have a relationship with Zixiao''s nephew... Huh!" Before Gu Beichen finished speaking, he was "mercilessly" punched by Jian Mo, and he immediately choked out in pain. Jian Mo looked at him and pushed him away. "Gu Beichen, you are the most careful person..." "Hey, be jealous of the person you like..." Gu Beichen picked his eyebrow. "Isn''t it normal?" "It''s normal..." J leaned against the door with his arms around his chest. "But are you going to make trouble all the time and don''t go down to dinner?" Gu Beichen looked back at J, saw him turn his eyes, got up and walked downstairs: "I think I should also find a little girlfriend... Well, use Gu Beichen''s tricks to ensure that I can get one!" ¡­¡­ When Xiao Jing arrived at the company, Gu Beichen had not arrived yet. The empty floor is a little strange. Standing in front of the large glass window of the president''s office, overlooking Los Angeles in the sun, Xiao Jing''s face was a little dignified, but he smiled at the corners of his mouth Grasp Gu mohuai. All this will eventually restore calm. "Think you''ll replace me directly?" A low voice came from the side and rear, and Gu Beichen came in. "However, I can suggest chairman Jian to replace me as Chief Executive..." "Chen Shao, your joke is not funny at all." Xiao Jing glanced, "who is sick, just like to sit in this position, tired and a dog..." Xiao Jing suddenly stopped talking. He looked at Gu Beichen''s Yin measured handsome face and immediately flattered with a smile, "that... Chen Shao, I swear, I absolutely didn''t mean to say you''re a dog!" "Oh?" Gu Beichen said softly and nodded, "it''s true... After all, I''m still comfortable in this position and cheat a wife by the way." After a pause, just when Xiao Jing felt that Gu Beichen would repay him with vengeance, he did "Unlike some people, but after managing for a while, they have been busy day and night. They are really as tired as dogs..." "..." Xiao Jing bared his teeth. Really, he really wants to pick up the folder in front of him and throw it directly on Gu Beichen''s face! After Gu Beichen sat down, he glanced at Xiao Jing and asked, "what does Gu mohuai say?" Xiao Jing gave a general description of Gu muhuai''s arrest in the morning. While he couldn''t figure out the speed of the police, he said what Gu muhuai left last "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing frowned. "The second uncle said he didn''t lose. It shouldn''t be aimless..." paused. "Will it be ye Chenyu... What big moves will there be?!" "No..." Gu Beichen refused, and didn''t tell Xiao Jing the identity of Ye Chenyu. After all, he is still an undercover. Is he good! Gu Beichen said so. Xiao Jingdao didn''t worry about this person too much... Just, the center of his eyebrows was always twisted. "Do you want to see your second uncle first?" After being silent, Xiao Jing said, "maybe you can find some words?" Gu Beichen shook his head. "Let''s close it for a few days first. Noodles... Always want to see." Sometimes, under the torture of patience, who is calm, who has the right to dominate As for the people inside the Bureau, I''m afraid they don''t dare to act rashly because of his relationship. When he moved, he gave Ye Chenyu another favor It''s just that Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing didn''t expect that everything came too fast... When the video on the network was flooded, it was out of control. "Our reporter," came the host''s capable voice, "Last year, it was revealed that Jian Zhanfeng, the manager of Yuanda, accidentally fell from a building. It was not so simple on the surface... Before that, there had been no substantive evidence! Just half an hour ago, a video was released on the Internet that night, which clearly recorded how Cen Lanxi, the mother of Gu Beichen, the president of the emperor, pushed Jian Zhanfeng, the father of the president''s wife, resulting in the fall..." Chapter 870 The outside media has exploded, and the quiet flower dance cafe is completely quiet and peaceful under the soft piano music. Jane was a little embarrassed, but she tried to cover up his. "Jane Mo, are you?" Shen Chu rolled over his eyes and couldn''t stand it. "Where''s the strength to me before?" Jian Mo was stunned and immediately knew that Shen Chu saw her nervousness. "You are a rival in love. Of course I am different in order to defend my position..." she sighed, "but I want to see a psychologist now. Can you do the same?" "You think you''re not ill..." Shen Chu said indifferently. "Then you can ask the psychologist not to come!" "..." Shen Chu bared his teeth, "you said, why do you look so cold when you''re a stranger? You''re so funny when you''re familiar with something special!" "As if to say how good you are?" Jian Mo snorted, "when he was not a rival in love, he was a white lotus. In fact, now he is a poisonous rose!" "OK," Shen Chu nodded, "you''re so poisonous... Do you have any friends to do it?" Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu''s appearance that she was going to throw a coffee spoon at her. "Puff" laughed, "you''re hard enough to make me relax!" Shen chuzhe smiled. The two women looked at each other like this. Suddenly, they had a feeling of looking at themselves. However, she is not as lucky as Jian mo... There is no gu Beichen around her. Suddenly, Shen Chu thought of the man who danced with her in Los Angeles square on the third night of the new year Suddenly frowned, how can I suddenly think of him?! "What do you think?" Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu with a curious face. "It''s just the beginning of spring, and you''re beginning to miss spring?" When Shen Chu heard this, he stared angrily, "just laugh..." Jian morhu really smiled again. Shen Chu has no idea about Gu Beichen now. As a woman who loves Gu Beichen, she can feel it. "Seriously, what crazy thing do you want to do?" Jane Mo asked suddenly. Shen Chu was stunned at first, and then reflected what Jian Mo asked, "just think, why don''t I just find a man to marry first, and it''s good to fall in love again..." As soon as Jane Mo heard it, she immediately laughed and said, "I''m not the only man!" "OK, you caught a Gu Beichen. You''re awesome... All right?" Shen Chu couldn''t stand rolling his eyes. Immediately, the two women looked at each other and laughed again. At the right time, someone in the cafe pushed the door and came in and looked around. When Shen Chu saw it, he raised his hand, and the woman came over with arrogant steps "Michelle," Shen Chu introduced them after Michelle sat down. "I told you, Jane mo." "Hello..." Michelle leaned out her hand. "Hello!" Jane Mo also greeted with a smile. Michelle is a very sexy woman at first sight, with wavy curly hair, deep eye sockets, high nose... Her facial features are also very three-dimensional. "Michelle is a hybrid," Shen Chu said. "She used to study psychology abroad. She only returned home last year and opened a psychological counseling clinic." "Your situation told me at the beginning. I''m good at your example..." Michelle said with an enchanting smile. "If you have the intention, come to my house two or three times a week." With that, she took a note and wrote the address to Jane mo. "At home?" Jane was a little surprised. Michelle smiled. "Xiao Chu said, your identity is special... Well, it''s really special!" She shrugged. "It''s probably more convenient to go home." "I''ll accompany you later..." Shen Chu said with enough meaning. "Of course, if your husband approves leave during work." Michelle laughed when she heard Shen Chu''s teasing. "Don''t worry, we have professional ethics in our industry..." she thought Jane Mo didn''t trust her very much. "Otherwise, we can''t do it anymore." "I don''t mean that..." Jian Mo said hurriedly, "I trust Shen Chu''s friend." Not much modification, just expressed a meaning Friends are trustworthy. Michelle raised her eyebrows and was obviously delighted by this. "You are the same as Xiaochu said. You are really a special person..." she said. She looked at the time. "I have another customer to see later, so excuse me..." At the same time, she got up, "you have decided the time. You need to make an appointment with me one day in advance..." "OK." Jane nodded and watched Michelle leave the cafe before she sat down and said, "what a hot woman." "I can''t help it. As a psychologist, if my heart is not strong enough, I would have been taken away by the patient..." Shen Chu tilted his head and looked at Michelle and got on the bus. "What''s up later?" "No..." "Go to the hot spring together?" Shen Chu asked, "dinner is ready in the hot spring Club... Well, Jinxi made an appointment to go to heaven night in the evening. Just together?" "I haven''t seen her for a long time..." Jane Mo suddenly missed the time when she just met the woman. "There were some accidents. I haven''t seen her for a long time." "It seems that... You can only be with me for the rest of today." Shen Chu said, calling the waiter to check out, and left the cafe with Jane mo. "Drive my car," Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo and said, "your car will come back and drive again." "Yes." Jian Mo didn''t refuse, so she got into Shen Chu''s car directly. They went to heal Hot Spring Club under Emperor Group together As the hot spring club is in the suburbs, Shen Chu simply took the viaduct and didn''t shuttle from the urban area. Just because they didn''t go downtown, they just missed the news Jane Mo took her mobile phone and sent a short breath to Gu Beichen. Shen Chu''s teasing voice came to her ear: "I said, can you take care of me? It''s also my first love. Is it really good for you to be in front of me like this?" "Do you know what I sent to ah Chen?" "Who else but him..." Shen Chu couldn''t stand rolling his eyes. Jane Mo smiled and sent out the information without bickering. Mo''er: Shen Chu and I went to heal to soak in the hot spring. We didn''t go back to eat at night. We made an appointment with Jinxi to go to heaven night. Gu Beichen just wanted to take out his mobile phone and call Jian mo. when he wanted to ask where she was, he received a text message "Inform the emperor and deal with the emergency public relations first..." Gu Beichen ordered Xiao Jing in a cold voice, "in addition, the police, contact me." "OK..." Xiao Jing hurried out of the office with a dignified face. Gu Beichen read Jian Mo''s text message and knew that she should not have seen the video on the Internet. President Gu: OK, call me when you want to come back and I''ll pick you up... Don''t drive at night, huh? Mo''er: I took Shen Chu''s car. It was at the door of flower dance and didn''t drive. President Gu: Well, I''ll ask Xiao Jing to drive later Jian Mo immediately sympathized with Xiao Jing. Originally, as long as "serve" Gu Beichen alone, now it''s better to add her! Just thinking, Shen Chu''s phone rang... She pressed the Bluetooth headset, "Hello, who?" In the earphone, Gu Beichen heard a low and deliberately lowered voice: "it''s me, don''t let Mo''er know it''s me..." Chapter 871 Shen Chu subconsciously frowned. Yu Guang looked at Jian Mo on one side and saw that she didn''t pay attention. Then he said, "I''ll go to work tomorrow and talk about the design drawings..." "Don''t open the radio on the road," Gu Beichen said in a deep voice. "Don''t ask anything. In short, don''t let Mo''er touch any media." "OK, I''ll be there as soon as I go to work tomorrow..." Shen Chu answered, "OK... Hang up first and see you tomorrow!" Shen initially mobile phone make up, and go to the right side to Tucao, "I don''t understand. Why do I finally enter the emperor''s design department?" you said, "what should I do when a UCL comes out? I should make complaints about myself. I can''t get my face in the Emperor, and I''m afraid that people will say I''m on the relationship, and I''m dying every day." Jane Mo didn''t doubt him. She thought it was just a work phone, "you can change jobs..." "Jump?" Shen Chu wondered, and then asked, "where are you looking?" "How about Xiangyu?" Jane Mo smiled and asked, "just listed, in urgent need of talents like you..." Shen Chu smiled, but reluctantly, "I said Jian Mo, is it really good for you to pry your husband''s corner like this?" Jane Mo also laughed, and then turned off the topic Along the way, Shen Chu was chatting with Hu, but he was thinking about Gu Beichen''s phone. What happened? Listening to Beichen''s tone, it seems that it has something to do with Jane mo... But she can''t know?! At the heal hot spring club, the lobby manager came out to meet him in person. "Madam President, the room is ready..." the manager smiled and led Jian Mo and Shen Chu to the luxurious single room hot spring pool. Jane Mo was not surprised, thinking that Gu Beichen called in advance. Just after Jian Mo and Shen Chu entered the deluxe room, the manager went back to the lobby, "are they all blocked?" "It''s all blocked..." the receptionist swallowed secretly, "fortunately, it''s just right!" "Yes." The manager answered, then sighed deeply, "notice that no one can be different when the president''s wife is in the guild hall." "OK..." The manager has a headache and can only pray that Gu Beichen can clean up the things on the network. Otherwise, she can manage the staff and the guests ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen dealt with the effect caused by the video with great vigour. After being explained, he called J "Where''s Xiao Jie?" "Asleep..." J was silent for two seconds and then asked, "Gu Beichen, things on the Internet... Can''t they be true?!" "How long will it take to clean it up?" Gu Beichen asked. Now, Xie Haitian and Xiao Qiang are already dealing with it, but they have to deal with it cleanly. I''m afraid no one is as fast as J "You want to cheat Jane Mo?" J asked with a cold face. Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was covered with haze, "deal with it first..." The indisputable words made J turn his mouth immediately, and he was dissatisfied. However, considering that Jane Mo would be unhappy, he still said: "it has been handled!" After a pause, he snorted and said, "but I kept the video..." That''s it. I''ll tell Jane Mo at any time that your mother killed her father! "Did you find the path?" Gu Beichen is not in the mood to argue with J at this moment, "where is the IP address?" "I checked, it''s an Internet cafe..." J subconsciously replied, "I also intruded into the monitoring of the Internet cafe and found that there was no one when the machine was spreading the video!" What does that mean? Before the machine was implanted with a specific virus, it will trigger under specific circumstances The trigger may be a text message following someone, or who opened a website... In this case, it takes time and effort to find it. I''m afraid it''s useless even if it''s found. In due time, the internal phone rang, Gu Beichen explained to j again, hung up his mobile phone and pressed the internal line "President... A policeman said he wanted to see you?!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "let me come up..." "Yes!" After the front desk answered, he personally pressed the elevator to the top floor for the police. "Chen Shao," the policeman said awkwardly when he entered Gu Beichen''s office, "well, we can''t contact Mrs. Gu, so..." "Now the authenticity of the video should not be found out. It doesn''t rule out that the video has been tampered with, has it?" Gu Beichen asked indifferently. "So now we need Mrs. Gu to come back and assist in the investigation..." the police said. "Now it''s the same thing on the Internet, but it doesn''t make sense if someone sends a video to the Bureau and doesn''t file a case." Gu Beichen is still indifferent, so people can''t see his mood at the moment Since Gu muhuai wanted to make the last attempt with this matter, he must have calculated and calculated... Naturally, every step is dead. Otherwise, it is absolutely impossible for the police to come to him directly To put it another way, if it weren''t for the position of the emperor in Los Angeles, I''m afraid I would have issued an arrest warrant directly. Public opinion, coupled with some high-level leaders with thoughts... Gu muhuai, it''s hard for him, and it''s hard to drag him? This video is true or false, but Gu Beichen knows very well... Jian Zhanfeng''s death is really related to his mother. The position of the heart suddenly hurt. That feeling slowly suffocated and thinned the air in the whole office After doing so much, can we only bear the gratitude and resentment of the past and even the previous generation in the end?! Gu Beichen suddenly felt a little confused. No matter how much he endured, he had never been afraid However, how can he be willing to let his Mo''er bear all this?! ¡­¡­ Jane Mo was lying on the edge of the hot spring pool. Her hair was tied in a bun on her head at will. She was lazy and charming. Jane has always been a beauty. If the beauty of Shen Chu is raised by a rich family, the beauty of Jian Mo is from the bone In addition, in order to "seduce" Gu Beichen in those two years, she can say that she threw away her reserve. It can be imagined how seductive her body is. Shen Chu is absent-minded in chatting. He brushes the Internet while holding his mobile phone, and he is strange Even the official account of WeChat radio, a few big radio stations in Los Angeles, has been brushed away. There is nothing special about it. At the right time, Jian Mo''s mobile phone rang all the time. The pleasant piano music showed the softness of soothing human nature. ''crash'' came the sound of water. Jane Mo took a bath towel and wrapped her body. At the same time, she took water with her feet and went to get her mobile phone Looking at the flashing name above, Jane Mo subconsciously smiled, "ah Chen?" Gu Beichen stood in front of the window and looked at the dim sky. The eagle''s eyes narrowed gradually A light and crisp "ah Chen" came. At that moment, his heart almost stopped beating. Mo''er If I use love to make up for the past... Will you face it with me? Chapter 872 "Ah Chen?" Jane Mo waited for a while. She didn''t hear what the other side was talking about. She took down her cell phone and saw that she was still on the phone. "Ah Chen? Can you hear me?" "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen''s voice was slightly dull. Jane Mo''s heart twisted together inexplicably. That feeling, I can''t say... It''s like someone pinched my heart. Shen Chu glanced at Jian Mo, and the hot air of the hot spring curled around his sight, which seemed to be shrouded in a layer of confusion. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo called softly, "what''s the matter?" Gu Beichen looked at the increasingly darkened sky. The fog at night seemed to cover the building of the emperor group. When you have a dark hand, you think it can turn over like a cloud. "I......" Gu Beichen gently lifted his thin lips, "I just miss you!" Something, from the bottom of my heart, seems to open a delicate flower. Jane morhu smiled at the corners of her mouth, and the smile spread from the corners of her mouth inadvertently, and instantly spread to the face shrouded in water vapor As a woman, I want to be beautiful now. Such a sweet and happy smile, coupled with a beautiful face... At the moment, I only have a bath towel. Um She''s not dirty! She''s just starting from a man''s point of view now "We''ve only been apart for a few hours..." Jane Mo smiled and joked, "you make me think you can''t live without me." "Hmm..." Gu Beichen said in a magnetic voice. At the right time, the eagle''s eyes were also deep and couldn''t see to the end. "I really left you and couldn''t live!" By such a solemn "confession", Jane Mo felt the same as she had just fallen in love. For a time, she felt that she was still green at the moment. Just "Mr. Gu," Jian Mo suddenly raised her eyebrows, "you''re so sweet at the moment. Can''t you do something sorry for me while I''m away?" The joking words showed the charm under Jiao Chen, but Gu Beichen''s heart was indeed slightly cool at this moment. "Mo''er, what if it is?" Gu Beichen asked aloud. "..." the smile on Jane Mo''s face gradually closed up, "what does that depend on?" Mingming felt that he was just joking, but now he felt that Gu Beichen was not joking with her "Alas," Gu Beichen sighed, "how can you be willing to do something sorry for you?" He seemed helpless, "just, Mo''er, I can''t control some things..." Jian Mo felt that Gu Beichen''s call was not for no reason, "where are you?" Her voice was a little muffled. "Why don''t you come to me?" "Didn''t you make an appointment with Jinxi in the evening?" Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a smile, although it was a little bitter, "why, pay more attention to color than friends?" "You''re not unfamiliar. Why don''t you come together?" Jian Mo suggested, "you can call Yunze them... Haven''t they left to the South yet? You patronize me and haven''t had a good gathering with the south!" "OK..." Gu Beichen was warm in his heart. This woman always paid casual attention to his affairs. It''s really good to think of each other like this... Well, he doesn''t want to let her go. Shen Chu feels strange. Gu Beichen, who she knows, is definitely not such a hypocritical person Of course, with Jane Mo, everything may change. But with the phone call at that time, she still felt that something had happened... But she and Jane Mo didn''t know at the moment. "It''s annoying..." Shen Chu said discontentedly when Jian Mo hung up the phone. "You said you were like this. Do you really want to consider my feelings?!" Jian Mo slightly frowned, "Shen Chu, I think... Ah Chen is a little strange." "Tut Tut, what''s strange?" Shen Chu couldn''t stand it and said, "abusing US single Wang from time to time is not what you and President Gu like to do most?" Jian Mo was amused by Shen Chu''s appearance. "Well, it''s getting late... Let''s go to dinner and then go to heaven night." ¡°OK£¡¡± Shen Chu said and went out of the hot spring pool. The two were going to have a buffet, but the manager said Gu Beichen had arranged dinner and simply gave it up. Shen Chu became more and more confused. While teasing Jian Mo in his mouth, he wondered whether Gu Beichen didn''t want Jian Mo to contact a wide range of people?! Think so, on the way to heaven night, Shen Chu still walked from the elevated After getting off the viaduct, I found a less prosperous street and went to heaven night. "How do I get from here?" Jane Mo wondered, "isn''t it closer from there?" "I''m afraid of traffic jam..." Shen Chu said calmly, "you haven''t spent the new year in Los Angeles in recent years. It''s the last Carnival before work. It''s really terrible." Jane Mo thought so. In addition, she spent this year in Haibin city. She hasn''t spent the new year in Los Angeles for five years. Well, it''s quite emotional to think about it ¡­¡­ Paradise night. The four young boys in Los Angeles are rarely able to get together now, not only because Lin Nannan has little chance to come back in the army. Also because in the past year, the Dragon owl spent most of his time in the seaside city to set up a woman named warm! Li Yunze came with Li Jinxi. Gu Beichen didn''t see Chen Yu, thinking that they were still stiff and didn''t ask. "Well, why are you alone?" Li Jinxi seemed to have regained her former Queen''s breath. "Mo''er and Xiao Chu went to the hot spring in the afternoon," Gu Beichen said calmly, "come together later." "Beichen, there''s no one else who did it for you!" "Huh?" "First love and his wife became good friends," Li Jinxi said with a little venom. "I really want to know how you feel?" Li Yunze took the lead in laughing and looked at Gu Beichen. He made it clear that he also wanted to know. "What Mo''er approves is what I approve." Gu Beichen still replied indifferently. "..." Li Jinxi shook his head, "there''s really no integrity at all." Gu Beichen smiled, "if you have a wife, what kind of integrity do you want?" Li Jinxi only felt cold for a while and didn''t see Gu Beichen for a while. How did this person feel changed again? Become... Popular! "I''ll go to the bathroom..." Li Jinxi got up and looked at the time. "I guess they should be here soon." At the same time, the box door was pushed open and Lin came in to the South After Li Jinxi said hello to him, he went to the bathroom first. Suddenly, there were only three men left in the box. "How are you going to solve some things..." brother Ning Lin asked Chapter 873 Li Yunze poured the wine, "I think no matter how to solve it, Jian Mo''s side is a headache." In the end, it''s my father. It''s ok if it''s not confirmed, but now there''s evidence. Moreover, the south side has been confirmed. Gu Beichen was silent, but calmly took out the smoke and lit it "Third brother?" Lin Nan was a little worried. "I can''t stay in Los Angeles for two days at most and I''ll return to the team. If you speak, I''ll deal with the police!" Anyway, his Lin family still has some abilities in military and political affairs. Even if they can''t handle it, they still have the ability to suppress it for a period of time so that the third brother can have more ample time to handle it. It''s the matter of the previous generation. Aunt Gu is not in Los Angeles most of the time Besides, Jane Zhanfeng is dead. Can we let the third brother and the third sister-in-law bear the past? Lin Nan was a little annoyed. He picked up the cup and drank it Yes, he has something that doesn''t happen to him. It''s easy to say. Lin Nan put down his glass weakly and lay back on the sofa with a worried face, but in his eyes, he was completely worried. "The problem now," Gu Beichen said indifferently, "I''m worried about Mo''er''s depression." After doing so much at the seaside, I finally felt that Mo''er began to slowly open his heart and planned to put down Xiao Yan''s business. Moreover, Michelle called him this afternoon and said that Mo''er didn''t seem to reject the treatment Now, with Jane Zhanfeng''s case, whether she will impose the past on herself and them is a kind of pressure on her. "That''s what I''m worried about..." Li Yunze sighed lightly. He is a doctor. He knows what a person''s depression will be like if it reaches a certain degree. "But it can''t be consumed like this?" Lin murmured to the south. At the right time, he kicked the tea table with dissatisfied feet. "Shit, I don''t understand. Third brother, did you do a lot of immoral things in your last life and so many things in this life?" Although Lin Nannan was angry, Li Yunze was heavy on his face. From Beichen was kidnapped at the beginning to the entanglement with Jian Mo at the end, which one pulled out made people tired. "In fact..." Gu Beichen''s voice was a little silent. "I was wondering whether to speak directly to Mo''er." His words just fell. Li Yunze and Lin Nan looked at him in varying degrees of surprise "Third brother, you..." Lin Nan hesitated, "aren''t you serious?" Gu Beichen indifferently extinguished the cigarette butts in the ashtray. His thin lips gently opened his mouth: "hide or face together..." he sighed, "in fact, I''m not sure." Because of hesitation, so care. If it is an irrelevant person, Gu Beichen is decisive in killing and cutting. When is he so hesitant and uncertain?! No, However, when a person is in your heart, you will feel that there is no way to make her get the best That''s a mentality of wanting her to be better! "I agree!" "I disagree..." Lin Nanan and Li Yunze spoke almost at the same time. They looked at each other, and there were warnings to each other at the bottom of their eyes. "If you don''t say it, you should know sooner or later." Lin opened to the south, "Gu mohuai must count that the third brother will press, and there must be a later move." "But Jane has depression. If she says this, she will be in trouble!" Lin Nan argued with Li Yunze, but he also found that whether he said it or not, it was a chicken rib. Li Jinxi pushed the door at the right time and came in. "In fact, women sometimes have better tolerance than men..." of course, she also knows about today''s online video, "however, Momo has depression, which really needs to be considered." Gu Beichen was silent and was not answering. Soon, Shen Chu and Jian Mo arrived Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes crossed Shen Chu. She nodded slightly and then motioned Jian Mo to sit next to him. Shen Chu is a smart man. There was Gu Beichen''s phone call before. Coupled with her subsequent behavior, she estimated that she didn''t want Jane Mo to know anything While there was not too much multimedia and stream of people along the way, after entering heaven night, I also took Jane Mo all the way and didn''t contact anyone. Jane Mo didn''t find anything different. The people here are all human talents and acting... Have become the basic courses of rich families. "Third sister-in-law, why do I love you so much?" Lin Nan licked his face and said, "if you don''t speak, I think my third brother will be a close housewife and man who wants to be a full-time wife in the future!" Jane Mo immediately laughed, "poor mouth!" "If only the third sister-in-law is happy." Lin winked to the south. He looked exactly like the iron men in the army. The atmosphere was invigorated by Lin Nannan. Everyone relaxed while chatting and drinking, which disrupted the dignified atmosphere a little Shen Chu wants to find a chance to ask Gu Beichen what happened. Unfortunately, Jian Mo and Gu Beichen have been together and didn''t attend. "Jinxi, do you know what happened?" Shen Chu asked. Li Jinxi sighed heavily and joked deliberately, "it can give you a chance to deal with Beichen again..." "..." Shen Chu was speechless immediately, "don''t make trouble." Li Jinxi shrugged with a heavy face, "talk back..." After hearing this, Shen Chu didn''t continue to struggle with this problem. ¡­¡­ America, New York! Shi Shaoqin has just seen star. The medicine has played a role. Now star''s life is gradually recovering Every day, when he came to see it, he could feel from the heart rate instrument that the breath of star was becoming more and more obvious. The "buzzing" of the mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. Shi Shaoqin took it out indifferently, glanced at the incoming call above and picked it up "Qin Shao..." the voice of the person in charge of Los Angeles came over the phone and roughly explained the video, "do you need to... Participate?" After all, the follow-up problems may involve Gu Yan. Shi Shaoqin stopped, stood at the window and looked at the overcast weather outside The narrow eyes narrowed slightly and listened to him slowly: "I''ve solved everything for him. What does Jane Mo want his husband to do?" "...." the person in charge of Los Angeles pulled at the corners of his mouth and didn''t know how to answer. "There are some things Gu Beichen has to face," Shi Shaoqin said coldly. "The Mo palace only needs to be responsible for Gu Yan''s safety before the red flower list is revoked." "I see..." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered faintly and hung up. On the beautiful handsome face, there is a faint emotion flowing, less previous alienation, more softness "Beichen," Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "I want to see if you can sort it out." Chapter 874 No matter how much the outside world has sailed, the night of heaven seems to have been the erosion of singing and dancing. Originally, we chatted together and occasionally played some games But gradually, the three men fought against the landlord, and the three women felt bored and simply nestled together. "Jinxi, you and Chen Yu..." after Shen Chu and Jian Mo looked at each other, she asked the bad man. Li Jinxi smiled and shrugged. "Wear it out..." she didn''t care, "I want a divorce, he won''t leave." "That''s also the matter of the previous generation..." Shen Chu frowned. Now looking at the good relationship between Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, she suddenly couldn''t be hypocritical... She always felt that there was hatred when there were lovers not together. Li Jinxi sighed heavily, and his eyes seemed to fall across Jian Mo inadvertently. At that time, Beichen talked about the video with them. She also said without shame: Women''s tolerance is very strong. But now think about it Really, it''s easier for others, but it''s not so easy for yourself. "Mo Mo..." Li Jinxi shouted in a muted voice. "Huh?" Li Jinxi glanced at the corner of her mouth. On the face of the queen fan''er, there was obviously some hesitation, "my thing... Did Beichen tell you specifically?" "It''s not clear. It''s said that Chen Yu''s family caused your brother to die..." Jian Mo said without concealment. "What will happen to you if you do the same?" Li Jinxi asked, "will you divorce Beichen?" "Jinxi," Jian Mo frowned slightly, "in fact, you shouldn''t ask this question like this?" Li Jinxi looked at Jian Mo suspiciously and didn''t understand. Jane Mo smiled faintly, "you should ask, what is the most important now and in the past..." paused, "or do you love Chen Yu?" Li Jinxi frowned. "It''s important now. I love Chen Yu too..." she smiled with self mockery. "However, it still can''t erase the fact that my brother was killed by Chen Yu''s family." Jane Mo drooped her eyes and was silent. She didn''t know what to say Because such things, without empathy, are easier to say than the parties. Shen Chu didn''t speak, but he felt something sensitively... Connected Gu Beichen''s phone in the afternoon to this moment, as if it would be clear at once. After all Last year, it was exploded. Cen Lanxi was the one who killed Jian Zhanfeng. The atmosphere on the woman''s side was a little stiff, as if it was because of Li Jinxi, but Jian Mo didn''t think so. I can''t say why "Third brother," Lin threw a card to the South and whispered, "do you feel tired in a rich family?" "If you enjoy it, you must bear it." After Gu Beichen''s indifferent answer, he threw out a blast. Lin Nan looked at the cards in his hand and grinned at Li Yunze "Don''t look at me, I don''t have a card!" "No one wants it?" After Gu Beichen made a light sound, he gave another shunzi. After Li Yunze caught him, he threw out the Wang fried in his hand, "thirty-six thousand a person, remember to hit me." Then he got up indifferently, "it''s getting late. Mo''er''s body can''t stand it. Let''s go back first." "..." Lin Nan twitched at the corner of his mouth and said discontentedly, "the more rich, the more stingy... This money is OK." Gu Beichen slightly picked his eyebrow tail, "there''s no way. Now his wife is in charge of Finance and always has to make some private money." What he said was so serious that people in a room turned their eyes. "Take meat hemp as fun..." Li Yunze has a sour mind that he can''t eat grapes. "When you finish someone, you can return!" Gu Beichen made it clear that he was upset about something in his heart and didn''t let his brother feel comfortable. Li Yunze was immediately dissatisfied and directly shouted dirty words, "shit!" Jane Mo likes the feelings of the four young girls in Los Angeles. It''s a good feeling to leave her back to each other. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo left first, and the atmosphere in the box was instantly quiet "In fact, does anyone tell me first," Shen Chu broke his silence, "what happened?" Several people looked at each other. Lin Nan lay lazily on the sofa. He doesn''t like Shen Chu. He didn''t like it a long time ago... Maybe it''s because she left Gu Beichen, or maybe it''s because of natural magnetic field rejection. He didn''t want to answer her question at the moment. Shen Chu ignored Lin Nannan and just looked at Li Jinxi. "A video burst out. The death of Momo''s father was directly related to Aunt Gu..." Li Jinxi''s voice was a little dignified. "I heard that the video had been analyzed by technicians and had not been processed." Shen Chu suddenly widened his eyes. Although he had just thought of it, he was still surprised to hear Li Jinxi say so "Then Jane Mo and Beichen..." "The third brother and the third sister-in-law are estranged. Here''s your chance!" Lin said with strange sarcasm. Shen Chu immediately changed his face, "Lin Nan, did you go out without brushing your teeth today?" She sneered, "even if I have a chance, what''s none of your business?" Li Jinxi and Li Yunze both frowned and looked helplessly at the people around them. No one spoke. The atmosphere in the box of Paradise night was strange. It seemed that there was something lingering in the car back to the mid level villa. "Ah Chen..." Just as the car passed through the lost and headed for the halfway house, Jane Mo shouted. "Huh?" Gu Beichen glanced at Jian mo. "You today..." Jane Mo hesitated and thought for a while before asking, "is there something hiding from me?" After so much experience with Gu Beichen, although this man has a bad taste in private, he still looks indifferent in peacetime But it''s obvious that he was a little strange since the phone call at the hot spring club today. "Squeak -" The car pulled over on the deserted road. The moon was bleary and the pine trees covered most of the light. Jian Mo gently frowned and looked at the place in front of him illuminated by the lights. Subconsciously, he looked at Gu Beichen at the corner of his mouth, "ah Chen?!" Gu Beichen held the steering wheel tightly, then turned off the fire and turned off the lights. The sight suddenly darkened and showed a strange look. Gu Beichen''s Adam''s apple rolled down, and his temples became uncontrollably twitching because of some emotion If you want to know sooner or later, he doesn''t want her to know about that year from other channels... After all, she trusts him so much! In the narrow carriage, the air gradually became dignified because of the treacherous smell. Suddenly, it was difficult for Jane Mo to breathe. Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and sighed secretly. The thin corners of his lips touched with complex emotions... While disappearing, he looked at Jian mo. In the dark, there is only a thin light. However, there is only each other in each other''s sight. "Mo''er," Gu Beichen''s voice was a little confused, "I don''t want to lie to you..." Chapter 875 Jane Mo''s heart suddenly became nervous. Gu Beichen was so heavy that she subconsciously affirmed that it was not a good thing. "But I''m afraid again..." Gu Beichen twisted his eyebrows. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen painfully. The man was so high Saying "fear" in this way made her heart twist uncontrollably. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo came forward and hugged Gu Beichen. Her voice was soft and waxy in his ear. "I don''t know what happened," her voice was a little ethereal, "but I think it''s about me." If it weren''t for her, ah Chen wouldn''t hesitate like this?! Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gradually deepened, and his thin lips became a straight line "You can''t live without me," Jane Mo''s nose suddenly sour. "I won''t leave you, at least, in front of anything, I won''t leave until I try hard." If there is any difficulty, I want to face it with you It''s like when I was in the Mo palace, although I couldn''t see you, I know that you are working hard to see me earlier in a corner of the world. "Ah Chen, please believe me..." Jian Mo''s eyes were red, and the bottom of his eyes was filled with a thin layer of water mist. "No matter what happened, as long as I face it with you, even if I can''t do it now, I''ll try my best." Sucking her nose, Jane Mo smiled at the corners of her mouth, "because it''s so difficult for us to be together, how can I be willing to separate from you?" Gu Beichen gently opened Jian Mo, and the slight moonlight reflected in from the window, reflected on the crystal at the bottom of her eyes, stung his heart. Tears, so inadvertently slipped from the corners of the eyes. Gu Beichen leaned forward and his thin lips fell on the tears overflowing from Jian mo. taking the kiss as a mirror, he salted his taste buds. However, it made him grateful for such a woman in his life. "Mo''er, it''s not a small matter..." Gu Beichen''s voice was husky. While Jian Mo felt Gu Beichen''s fine kiss, her eyelashes trembled, "but we are husband and wife. No matter anything, we should face it together!" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil stared at Jian Mo deeply, and his temples moved slightly. There was a layer of dignified on Jun''s face and said, "there''s a video burst..." He swallowed involuntarily, "in those days, your father was stopped by my mother..." Gu Beichen said with his teeth clenched, "forced to jump from a building!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Jane Mo only felt a ''buzzing'' across her head, and in an instant, it was blank. She forgot to think. She just stared at Gu Beichen in a daze. Her eyes flickered from side to side. She didn''t know what to see or how to Flustered, caught the eyes with dense mist. At this moment, the corners of Jian Mo''s mouth trembled uncontrollably, and then her body trembled. "That, that..." Jane Mo wanted to calm down, but her heart was flustered, making her voice intermittent. "That video... Is... Is... Really?" The broken voice showed resistance. Although Jian Mo asked again, he didn''t want Gu Beichen to answer at all. Looking at Jian Mo''s expression, Gu Beichen''s heart tightened, "this has almost proved to be true!" He clenched his teeth and said that whether Mo''er could face it with him or not, he would not let go In this life, for this woman, good or bad, he will not let go! Jane shook her head. She didn''t even know how to think at this moment. "You, you let me calm down." With that, she subconsciously loosened her seat belt, got out of the car, and then walked forward with some vain steps Ah Chen''s mother killed her father? Ah Chen''s mother killed her father! Ah Chen''s mother killed her father In a word, filled with all the brain nerves of Jane Mo, her eyes widened and her pupils overflowed in circles. "Ah --" Jane Mo suddenly screamed sharply in place, and then stamped her feet. She hugged her head. She wanted to get rid of something, but she couldn''t get rid of it... She felt like she was going crazy. Why, why is this the result, why? She finally came to this day with ah Chen. She finally came to this day. Why did something happen again? Why?! "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo painfully. He was right behind her, but he didn''t dare to come forward and hold her. "Sobbing..." Jian Mo suddenly burst into tears, squatting down, holding his legs in his arms, burying his face in his arms, and began to cry wantonly. Gu Beichen''s heart was stinging and numb. He walked forward with some heavy steps and squatted down in front of Jian mo He didn''t say anything, just held her in his arms. Gu Beichen held the back of Jian Mo''s head in his big palm, put his chin against the top of her hair, and said hoarsely: "I don''t want to lie to you, but... Mo''er, I won''t let you go, do you understand?" Jane Mo didn''t listen, but just cried. She didn''t know how to face such a situation. She even resisted to face it. "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo shouted in a tearing voice, "ah Chen..." Gu Beichen closed his eyes and held Jian Mo tightly. At this moment, he didn''t know how to deal with the current situation. Don''t Mo''er care? How is it possible That''s her father! But, let her care? How will they continue Although the things of the previous generation should not be borne by them, their parents... Even after that, it led to the destruction of Mo''er''s family. The night wind is a little cold Jane Mo didn''t know how long she cried. She didn''t have the strength to cry for a long time. She just sobbed in Gu Beichen''s arms. "Let''s go home first, huh?" Gu Beichen asked softly. Jane Mo didn''t speak. Gu Beichen slightly let go of her and wanted to get up and pick her up However, because he squatted too long, his legs and feet stumbled and almost fell. "Ah Chen!" Jane Mo forgot her sadness in horror and hurried to help Gu Beichen. However, she seemed to forget that she had squatted too long. Even, crying for too long, some blood gas supply is insufficient. The sound of "well" came, and Jane Mo just felt that there was a shot put rolling in her head, which hurt so much that she was about to explode. Gu Beichen had stabilized his figure. Jun''s face was worried and squatted down again. "Isn''t it uncomfortable? I''ll take you to the hospital..." he said. He picked up Jian Mo and walked to the car. Jian Mo''s subordinates consciously dragged Gu Beichen''s clothes and looked at the man''s tense chin because of worry, and his heart was astringent again. "Ah Chen," Jian Mo said softly as Gu Beichen put her in her seat and fastened her seat belt, "if... I still want to be with you, is it too selfish to be sorry, dad?" Chapter 876 The ''click'' sound comes and the buckle of the safety belt is closed. Gu Beichen''s action stopped, and even forgot to get up. The space seems to be solidified by the air. The voice of Jian Mo makes people soften and cannot solidify. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen didn''t dare to see Jian Mo, but said softly, "are you sure?" Jane Mo''s nose is very sour, and her eyes are even more uncontrollable. Tears are on the fog again. "What to do..." she sniffed and said, "I don''t want to leave. We can be together after so much. I really don''t want to leave..." As if in despair, Jane Mo closed her eyes and began to cry again. She hates her cowardly self at the moment and feels sorry for her father and mother... But what should she do? She and he have experienced life and death, even joys and sorrows, and it''s not easy to go on "I don''t know if I can face everything next with you," Jian Mo cried bitterly, "but I just want to be with you, I don''t want to share... HMM!" Next, Gu Beichen''s crazy kisses were absorbed into his mouth The thick tongue is like sweeping everything of Jian Mo, sucking, tearing and grinding, and bullying licking... There is no way to express his state of mind at the moment. All the worries, even fears... Were shattered when Jian Mo said he wanted to be with him. His Mo''er, let you bear these, although it''s not what I want But things have happened. You can face it with me, you know? I have nothing to ask for in my life Kissing, hot as if to melt each other, more like what each other wants to talk about... It''s like kissing to the end of the world before they can stop. The lips and tongues entangled together madly affect each other''s mood. Until... Jian Mo''s breathing began to be not smooth, Gu Beichen gradually ended the kiss that turned into thousands of words. "Mo''er, thank you!" Gu Beichen put his forehead on Jian Mo''s forehead, "you don''t know how scared I am. The final result is that I want to force you to stay with me..." Jane Mo''s lips were full of Gu Beichen''s breath. She didn''t speak because... At the moment, she didn''t know what to say. "Let''s go home..." Jane Mo held her mouth for a long time, and her voice was hoarse after choking. "I''m so tired." "Good!" Gu Beichen gently kissed Jian Mo on the forehead, then got up, closed the co pilot''s door and went to the driver''s seat. The car starts again, with the joy of sadness, even if it makes the two people in the car almost suffocate. However, they know... There is a him or her around each other and will accompany each other. ¡­¡­ Palau. Gu Moyuan looked at Cen Lanxi, who was making a natural spa in the milk lake, with a tight frown. Los Angeles has called and asked Cen Lanxi to return home within three days. Otherwise, he will be handed over to Interpol and escorted home. "What''s the matter?" CEN Lanxi felt something wrong with Gu Moyuan, frowned at him and continued to enjoy it. Palau is located in the subtropical zone. Doing Spa at night can not only enjoy the night sky, but also relax your nerves CEN Lanxi likes it here recently and lingers on several small islands. "I booked a ticket to return home tomorrow..." Gu Moyuan said. CEN Lanxi frowned, "why do you suddenly want to return home?" Asked, she snorted coldly, "let me go back to face the woman Jianmo?" "Lan Xi," Gu muhuai shouted, and his voice became dignified. "Someone broke out the video of that year," his voice became more and more heavy, "that is, the video that you forced Jane Zhanfeng to jump from a building... The police asked to go back and cooperate with the investigation." CEN Lanxi''s face froze and her eyes widened... Her old face became ferocious because of convulsions. "What do you mean?" CEN Lanxi suddenly sat up, "what video? How can there be a video?" Gu Moyuan shook his head as if he were several years old in an instant Seven years have passed since that incident. Unexpectedly, it was turned out again seven years later. "What does Beichen say?" CEN Lanxi was a little flustered. "Let''s go back first," Gu Moyuan said, wringing his eyebrows. "I don''t know if he and Jane Mo will......" he whispered, feeling guilty at the bottom of his eyes. CEN Lanxi didn''t hear what Gu Moyuan said, but looked a little flustered, "is it the ghost of the second child? It must be him... Only he knew that year, it must be him!" "He has been sent to prison by Beichen..." Gu Moyuan frowned. CEN Lanxi suddenly burst out, "is Gu Beichen for Jane Morse, bitch, don''t you want me?!" There were people around the same author''s night spa. Although they couldn''t understand what they said, when Cen Lanxi roared angrily, they looked at it one after another "Lanxi, calm down!" Gu Moyuan gritted his teeth and stared at Cen Lanxi. "My son doesn''t want this matter to be exposed than you." His mother killed his favorite woman''s father, which makes Beichen and Jianmo how to face each other? ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen stopped the car. Jane Mo was very quiet all the way and her eyes were a little empty. He doesn''t force this woman to do anything at once. As long as she is willing to face it with him, then... He will be very satisfied. Opened the door, took Jian Mo out of the car and went to the villa Jane Mo rubbed her cheek at the junction of Gu Beichen''s arms and chest, and buried her face in it. In his mind was Gu Beichen''s words at that time. Combined with Li Jinxi, Jane Mo''s mouth was a little tight. Almost the same experience, Jinxi wants to divorce Chen Yu because she can''t face However, she doesn''t want to go to the end. She and ah Chen still end up divorced. "Ah Chen..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen gently responded and stepped into the villa. The villa is very quiet. It''s midnight. J and Jane Jie should have gone to bed. "I want to see that video..." Jane Mo''s voice was stuffy. Gu Beichen just stepped on the ladder and paused. Then he continued to climb the ladder, "do you want to see tomorrow?" He whispered, "it''s too late today, and... I don''t want you to put so much pressure on yourself all at once." He knew that the little woman wanted to face it from the beginning... She wanted to be strong for him, but he was distressed. "Well, good." Jane Mo answered silently and didn''t speak again. Night, quiet and far-reaching in sadness Jane Mo lay in bed, listening to the sound of shower in the bathroom. She felt dizzy and a little sick at the same time. She tried to suppress that feeling, afraid that her repressed emotions would suddenly burst out. However, the more depressed, the more intense the feeling. Jane Mo kept breathing deeply, but it was of no use "Well..." Jane Mo hurriedly covered her mouth, opened the quilt, and even ran out of the bedroom without time to wear slippers Chapter 877 Gu Beichen took a bath and came out. There was no Jane Mo on the bed. He frowned slightly, his eyes crossed the slippers by the bed, and his face was a little gloomy. Almost without thinking, he pulled off the bath towel, fished the bathrobe on one side, put it on, and went out of the bedroom. "Oh..." Talent stood at the entrance of the stairs. A faint, repressed voice came from downstairs. Gu Beichen''s eyebrows had been frowned together. He walked to the downstairs bathroom with a subconsciously relaxed step. The sound of vomiting was a little clearer "Vomit... Vomit..." Jane Mo''s uncomfortable face had been screwed together and kept retching, but her stomach cramped. She was so sad that she retched. How long did it last? How long did Gu Beichen wait outside the washroom Jane Mo was sad, and Gu Beichen followed in pain. Yunze has reminded him that telling Jane Zhanfeng about this situation is likely to make Jane Mo''s depression burst out in an instant, and I''m afraid the consequences will be some serious. However, he believed in Jane mo. after all, she was such a strong person. But no matter how strong a person is, who can be indifferent in front of his relatives? Gu Beichen slowly clenched his hand, and the eagle''s eyes closed painfully, as if he was also holding back some emotion. The door of the washroom was suddenly opened. Jian Mo was obviously stunned when she saw Gu Beichen outside Gu Beichen opened his eyes, and there was a weak line of sight towards Jian Mo in the depths of the ink pupil. At that moment, they all wanted to escape, but they had to face it. "I..." Jian Mo was a little flustered, and even her face was overflowing with resistance because of flustered, "I just... Just cried a lot, so..." Gu Beichen didn''t say anything, but strode forward and fished Jian Mo into his arms The arms are gradually tightened, and even some don''t care if Jane Mo will hurt. Jane Mo held her mouth tightly. Because of Gu Beichen''s strength, she felt that she was about to fall apart by him. But even so, she didn''t say a word, just let him hold herself vigorously "Ah Chen..." In the end, Gu Beichen''s strength was not that Jane Mo could bear. She gently called, with a trace of forbearance in her voice. Gu Beichen closed his eyes. He knew how much strength he had used and how painful she was. But he wants her to hurt! As if feeling the sadness overflowing from Gu Beichen, Jian Mo''s nose suddenly burst into tears, and the uncontrollable "Susu" fell down again. "Ah Chen," the corners of Jane Mo''s mouth trembled, "I''m ill..." Her helpless eyes were buried in Gu Beichen''s chest, full of confusion. At that moment, she defeated all her defense lines, but she didn''t want this man to be so weak. "You said, we can face everything together..." Jian Mo''s voice choked. "I can... Whether it''s my father''s business or my illness!" I don''t know why. She feels that ah Chen knows she has depression. She had been hiding before and thought she had been hiding well... But at this moment, she knew clearly that, in fact, she had been deceiving herself and others. "I seem to be suffering from depression," said Jian Mo, still choking. "After Xiaoyan left, it was like... I was depressed. In fact, I have relieved a lot this time in Haibin City, but tonight..." Jane Mo''s words couldn''t be said any more. She just cried silently and wanted to vent all her emotions. "I know..." Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and his voice was unusually heavy, "I know!" He loves him so much that this woman loves him no less. Actually, we know everything about each other, don''t we? Can''t leave, even in pain. J heard the movement. He stood at the handrail of the stairs and looked at the figures hugging each other in the weak light of the wall lamp. His young face collapsed In fact, he didn''t quite understand the feelings between them, but when he thought of the video, he was still very poor for Gu Beichen. After all, it was his mother''s fault, not his. J tilted his mouth and looked upstairs... Seeing that Jane Jie''s room was quiet and silent, he turned back to his bedroom. In the afternoon, he was afraid that Xiao Jie would know anything and took him to play games all afternoon. But Gu Beichen and Jian Mo are so smart that Xiao Jie must be able to see something wrong ¡­¡­ It was already one o''clock in the morning after ye Chenyu followed up a small three case. He drove to mother Ye''s villa and didn''t understand all the way He is a top student in the police academy. Why does this undercover work endlessly?! When he arrived at the villa, he saw that the light was still on. Ye Chenyu frowned slightly, got off and went in "Mom, why haven''t you slept so late?" "You said you would come back. I made you soup. I''m afraid you''ll go to bed if you don''t drink..." Mother ye went to the kitchen to bring soup while she was talking. Where did she look sharp because of "hatred" before? "In fact, I can''t sleep either," Mrs. ye put the soup and small points on the table. "I also saw the video during the day. I wanted to call Beichen. Finally, I thought I''d better come back and ask you." "What happened in those years is true," said Ye Chenyu with a deep sigh. "Chu Zixiao happened to come to my detective agency to find me before. The case investigated was nothing but what happened in those years." Mother Ye frowned a little tighter, "that..." "Mom, don''t worry about it." Ye Chenyu sighed, "in fact, no matter what, if Jian Mo can''t pass that pass, it''s no use worrying about it." "Yes." Mother Ye replied like this, but she still frowned. Ye Chenyu knew that her mother didn''t worry about it was false, and didn''t say anything. She just ate by herself In fact, whether his father''s death had anything to do with Jane Zhanfeng or not, cen Lanxi forced him to death in private. From a legal point of view, it was always wrong. He is a policeman. He can''t have personal feelings on the case. All he wants is evidence. "I don''t know why," mother Ye sighed and looked at Ye Chenyu. "I always feel that something is wrong?" "Huh?" Ye Chenyu subconsciously made a noise. Because he stuffed steamed stuffed buns in his mouth, he couldn''t speak. "Do you think everything feels too weird?" Mrs. Ye sat upright, "you think, when your father clearly said that he and Cen Yulan had solved the problem peacefully, but how could Cen Lanxi find Jian Zhanfeng to vent his anger?" "I didn''t tell you that the audio was edited..." "I know." Mother Ye continued to say seriously, "we think so. In those days, Jian Zhanfeng was involved in your father''s car accident. Then, cen Lanxi forced Jian Zhanfeng to death for Cen Yulan... Finally, no matter why Jian Mo and Beichen got married, but now they are in love, but after Gu mohuai was caught by Beichen, the video of that year burst out..." Mother ye thought carefully, paused and said, "don''t you think everything is too coincidental?" Ye Chenyu stopped eating and looked at his mother. "Chenyu, you think, this video existed in those years. Why didn''t it explode in those years?" Mother ye asked curiously, "suppose that if this video was made by Gu mohuai, it would be the same as the audio given to me... Wouldn''t it be better to use this to threaten Beichen for the emperor?" "Mom means..." Ye Chenyu suddenly stared. "If your guess is right, it''s likely that this is a bureau that has been in control since a long time ago?" Chapter 878 Mother Ye was stunned by Ye Chenyu''s rhetorical question, and subconsciously shook her head, "I don''t know... I just think it''s strange that the whole thing is connected in this way." Ye Chenyu took out the meal paper, wiped his mouth, and said with an evil face: "but from the situation I checked this time, Jian Zhanfeng''s death was really related to Cen Lanxi." "No, it doesn''t mean the Bureau..." said his mother. However, what she said was unintentional, but ye Chenyu listened deliberately. As a policeman, it is essential to have a keen sense of favorable evidence However, if all this is from a long time ago, what is Gu muhuai''s purpose? If it''s not the emperor group, is it for the sake of family destruction? Ye Chenyu was frightened by his idea. Who is particularly ill... Or how much resentment? In order to destroy his family, he even counted himself in? It''s so annoying to plan ahead! "I''ll look for a chance to communicate with Beichen," said Ye Chenyu. "It''s getting late. Go to bed and I''ll clean up here." "Well, you''re too sentimental about it." Mother ye answered, "whether it''s true or not, or a trap, we can''t let them separate for this..." Mother Ye sighed again. She was always filled with regret that she and Mo Huai couldn''t stay together because of an accident Now, she can''t take care of her son. She just hopes that Beichen and Jian Mo, who love each other, won''t be separated. After mother ye went upstairs to bed, ye Chenyu sat where she was and summed up what she said several times. "If it''s really a game," Ye Chenyu smiled helplessly. "Gu mohuai''s mind can rise up if it''s on the right path, even if it''s not a leader." With some helpless sigh, ye Chenyu cleaned up the things on the table and didn''t stay. He drove away and went back to the detective agency. The night is spent in sadness and silence. The next day, the weather in Los Angeles was particularly good. The early morning sunrise was warm and sprinkled on all angles of the city. "Jun Li," Su Zhenqi put down his reading glasses, "there is no news in this newspaper, but I heard from my friends in the bureau last night that I''m afraid the case will be established." Even if the video is pressed down, after all, so many people have seen it... If the police don''t do anything, it''s impossible. "I just called Mo Mo, but no one answered. I sent her a text message." Su Jun''s warm face was dignified. "I can''t go to the middle of the mountain later." "Yes." Su Zhenqi nodded. Su Junli saw that Jian Mo hadn''t replied to the text message after breakfast. As he walked out, he dialed Jian Jie''s phone "Uncle, good morning!" On the phone, came the lovely voice of Jian Jie Ruan Nuo. "Good morning..." Su Jun got out of the car. "Where''s Mommy?" "Mommy hasn''t got up yet." Jane Jie frowned and said strangely, "daddy said, I was too tired last night." Although the little guy is smart, he obviously doesn''t understand "too tired at night". Su Junli estimated that it was related to the video, but Jian Jie''s tone seemed to know "OK, I''ll go there later." "Do you need breakfast for uncle?" Jane asked. "I did. Thank you, baby." Su Jun spilled a gentle and soft smile from the corner of his mouth, a little back to the feeling when he was in London. After hanging up the phone, Su Jun drove to the mid levels villa On the way, he wondered if Jane Mo''s life would be simple and happy if she had lived like that in London? But there is no if. No matter how simple and happy life is, it is not Jian Mo''s... Her life is in Gu Beichen. When we arrived at the villa, Gu Beichen was still there. Originally, today should be the day of formal work. Gu Beichen needs to deal with many things, large and small But he didn''t trust Jane mo. "Does Mo Mo know?" Su Junli and Gu Beichen went to the study together. "Yes." Gu Beichen''s indifferent face didn''t have much emotion, "I told her last night..." "I thought you pressed the video to hide it from her." "How long can you hide it?" Gu Beichen''s face was slightly sluggish. "Instead of being caught off guard, I''d better tell her." Su Junli was silent. "What are you going to do next?" Gu Beichen tilted his head and looked out of the window A sparrow happened to stop on the windowsill, chirped and flew away again. "Face it together," Gu Beichen looked back. "I use love to make up for her inner sadness." Su Junli smiled, smiling with unprecedented relief, "you deserve Mo Mo''s love..." Su Junli didn''t say much. No matter how much he said, it didn''t make much sense Gu Beichen is a responsible person, whether seen by the public or himself. He is worthy of Mo Mo''s reliance and can give her the most solid arm. Su Junli didn''t wait for Jian Mo to get up at last, but found youtou and said he would take Jian Jie abroad to attend a music exchange meeting. The Su family is a cultural family. Jian Jie was very interested in the piano because he was separated from Su Jun since childhood. Naturally, such a reason is not a reason. Gu Beichen is very grateful to Su Junli. He knows that this person is to give him time to deal with it. He doesn''t want Xiaojie to start bearing the burden borne by his parents when he was a child. No thanks, everything is just for the woman in my heart. Although Gu Beichen is jealous of Su Jun''s death "I''m out, too lazy to care about your business..." after su Junli and Jian Jie left, J hummed to Gu Beichen and left the villa. Gu Beichen sighed and turned to go upstairs. He saw Jian Mo standing haggard at the door of the bedroom Thin lips raised a slight smile. Eagle eyes stared at Jian Mo deeply. Gu Beichen asked with a magnetic voice: "wake up?" Jane nodded at the corner of her mouth, "where''s the milk bag?" "Su San Shao took it away," Gu Beichen said, raising his steps upstairs. "He said there was a music exchange abroad and took Xiaojie to attend." "Oh..." Jane Mo nodded her head, some not in the state. "After washing, eat something first," Gu Beichen raised his hand and gently stroked Jian Mo''s hair. "Then I''ll accompany you to see a psychologist, huh?" "I can go by myself..." Jane Mo said in a hoarse voice. Gu Beichen gently took Jian Mo into his arms. "For the first time, I want to face it with you... Can I?" Jane Mo was silent, and then a monosyllabic syllable overflowed from her throat, "HMM." Gu Beichen, with a smile on his thin lips, let go of Jian Mo and kissed her on her forehead, "I''m waiting for you downstairs..." Chapter 879 When Jian Mo went to change clothes, Gu Beichen called Xiao Jing "Chen Shao?" "Inform the meeting to move to the afternoon," Gu Beichen said indifferently. "OK, I see." Xiao Jing answered. After Gu Beichen hung up the phone, he turned his mouth and looked at Susan with a smile on her face. Her face was a little gloomy. "It seems that you have to deal with these files?!" Susan said that and went directly to Xiao Jing''s office with a pile of sub documents. She just took away two of them who had to wait for Gu Beichen. "I sympathize with you!" Xiao Jing''s face became more gloomy. "Chen has little wife, so he doesn''t do his business. Is it really good?" "It''s all right. Those who can do more work." Susan fanned her eyes. "I support you mentally, fighting!" "..." Xiao Jing grinned and said ruthlessly, "Secretary Su, you can go." Looking at Xiao Jing''s increasingly gloomy appearance, Susan simply laughed and left the special assistance office under Xiao Jing''s grinning. Of course, jokes are jokes. Susan knew very well that Xiao Jing would not really complain about anything... After all, no one was more loyal to Chen than him. Including her! On the first day of work, many people still have post holiday illness and are lazy. However, for multinational enterprises, emperor group, which has nothing to do with the domestic lunar new year, except for the temporary events handled by the personnel on duty, everyone has been busy as soon as they go to work. Gu Beichen temporarily decided to change the meeting to the afternoon, so that some urgent matters can only be handled by Xiao Jingxian ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen arrives at an apartment building with hotel style management according to the address given to Jian Mo by Michelle. "I didn''t expect you to make an appointment so soon," Michelle smiled enchanting when she opened the door and saw Gu Beichen. "This should be the emperor''s general manager Gu?!" "Hello!" Gu Beichen said hello calmly. Michelle doesn''t mind Gu Beichen''s attitude. After all, in the eyes of outsiders, this person has always been like this. "Unexpectedly, Gu will come here in person..." "It''s surprising to be with your wife?" Gu Beichen asked. Michelle was stunned and then smiled, "indeed, it''s normal!" Then she looked at Jian Mo, "relax, for the first time, I''ll talk to you first..." Jian Mo nodded and looked at Gu Beichen. Seeing that he gave her a stable look, the corner of his mouth gently pulled a faint smile and walked to the treatment room with Michelle. "President Gu, if you don''t mind, I have a bottle of good red wine in my wine cabinet..." Michelle said with a smile. "The treatment process will take about two hours." "Don''t worry about my time..." Gu Beichen stressed, "just follow your major." "Good!" Michelle and Gu Beichen nodded after Jane Mo entered the treatment room. Gu Beichen was not polite to Michelle. He took out the red wine she said, poured a glass, and went to the balcony This hotel style apartment is a real estate owned by the emperor. It is located in the third ring road. It can be said that the high house price is frightening. This is not Michelle''s home. It''s specially set up by him to treat Mo''er''s depression However, Michelle will be paid here. Time, little by little. With Xiao Jing in the company, Gu Beichen didn''t worry about those things at all Slender fingers twiddled the goblet. Gu Beichen looked at the rows of tall buildings outside. While reflecting the harsh light in the sun, the eagle''s eyes gradually narrowed Deep in the ink pupil, there was a flood of emotion, and a circle of dizziness stained the surface. At the right time, a layer of haze gradually shrouded on the cold, carved face. At the same time, a touch of cold smile came from the bottom of your feet on the edge of your thin lips If all this is just a game Gu Beichen thought so, and his sight suddenly became cold. If the second uncle can edit the audio of the dialogue between his mother and aunt from the beginning to come up with a "evidence" for Aunt ye, why not do something else for some purpose? For example Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes, which had narrowed into a line, suddenly opened. In the depths of the ink pupil, there were stormy waves. It seems that... He should meet his second uncle. Anyway, he won''t give up any chance Michelle came out of the treatment room two hours later. She moved very gently for fear of waking Jane Mo who was already asleep. "How''s it going?" Gu Beichen turned around and his eyes fell on Michelle, which had gathered the chill from her body just now. Michelle shook her head. "At first, it''s not as optimistic as Xiao tezhu told me before..." she frowned. "It seems that there''s a big reason for what broke out yesterday." Gu Beichen nodded without denying. "You have to tie the bell," Michelle shrugged. "I suggest starting with your mother." "I''ll talk to her." Gu Beichen answered. Michelle raised her eyebrows, and then said with an enchanting smile: "Mr. Gu gives people a feeling of indifference. I didn''t expect to be jealous of his wife." "Because she returns me more love, she deserves..." Gu Beichen said deeply. Michelle also deeply realized this when she treated Jian mo later... Strong people are stubborn, and Jian Mo is stubborn to be strong for Gu Beichen. It''s just that there are many things that can''t be done more or less... It''s just a pity that people are helpless. After Gu Beichen waited for Jian Mo to wake up, he took her directly back to the emperor. Jian Mo didn''t want to disturb Gu Beichen''s work. She simply went to the emperor''s design department and participated in the design of a large home building of the emperor this year on behalf of Xiangyu Gu Beichen kept the meeting open until 5 p.m. "Still in the design department?" Gu Beichen called Jian Mo while walking outside the conference room. "Shen Chu and I have arrived at the construction site," Jian Mo said with a smile. "Look at the surrounding environment, I can design..." "Do you need me to pick you up?" Gu Beichen''s voice was low, but soft. Xiao Jing had pressed the elevator. When Gu Beichen was ready to step in, Jian Mo said, "no, I''ll go back with Shen Chu after watching it." "OK, I''ll wait for you in the company, huh?" "Yes!" At the same time, Jane Mo answered, she had already walked to one side and was silent. Then she gently opened her mouth, "ah Chen, I love you..." Gu Beichen''s footsteps suddenly stopped, and the man was in the middle of the elevator door. Xiao Jing hurriedly pressed the up button to prevent the elevator from closing. Gu Beichen''s pupils have turned into warmth, and his thin lips overflow with a smile from his heart, "I love you too, so... Everything will pass." "Ah Chen, I will try my best..." Jane Mo said softly. "I''m always behind you. You just need to keep going." Jane moo opened her mouth and made a sour "um" sound in her nose before she hung up the phone. Gu Beichen slowly dropped his hand and was about to enter the elevator, but suddenly stopped again. He tilted his head and his eyes fell on the man who came in from the entrance of the stairs, wearing a black cap, drooping his head, wearing orange cleaners'' clothes and carrying buckets and mops in his hands Xiao Jing also looked at the past in time. While frowning slightly, he saw the man raise his head slightly and show his face. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "are you addicted to cross dressing?" Chapter 880 "No way," Ye Chenyu smiled. "Today is the cleaner." Xiao Jingwei frowned and didn''t speak. He just looked at Gu Beichen and nodded immediately. Gu Beichen takes back his sight and then enters the elevator. Xiao Jing waits for the elevator door to close before coming forward and taking Ye Chenyu to another elevator. Xiao Jing looked at Ye Chenyu subconsciously. He knew a lot and didn''t know much about Chen Shao. But obviously, he doesn''t know the existence of this person. Through Gu mohuai, he thought he had found a big news, but in the end, Chen Shao knew it "You and Chen Shao knew each other very early?" Xiao Jing asked curiously. Ye Chenyu smiled with evil spirit, "go and ask you Chen Shao, what am I doing?" "..." Xiao Jing''s face sank. "If Chen Shao said, do I have to ask you?" Ye Chenyu smiled more. "Xiao tezhu, do you know what is the most important in our business?" "What?" Xiao Jing asked subconsciously. "Confidential!" Ye Chenyu nodded solemnly. At the right time, the elevator arrived at the roof. Ye Chenyu looked at Xiao Jing choking. He was in a good mood, carrying buckets and other things, and got out of the elevator. Even whistling. Xiao Jing grinned secretly, "how can there be such a annoying person?!" His words were covered by the closed elevator. Ye Chenyu looked back, smiled and went to the front He found a place to sit down. Within two minutes, Gu Beichen came up. "If you come to me like this, you won''t be afraid of your identity being exposed?" Gu Beichen asked with a wrung eyebrow. "No way," said Ye Chenyu. "There was an accident. I was eavesdropped. I had to come to you..." "What''s up?" Gu Beichen frowned. Ye Chenyu motioned to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen ignored his expensive handmade suit and sat down next to Ye Chenyu. "When I went back last night, my mother told me a big Hypothesis..." Ye Chenyu lowered his voice and roughly said the key assumptions of mother ye, "how do I think it''s quite directional?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but looked at Ye Chenyu with deep eyes. "Hey, don''t look at me like that..." Ye Chenyu was a little hairy. "I think it''s quite possible. I didn''t sleep much all night..." "I thought of it in the morning." Gu Beichen interrupted Ye Chenyu''s words. Seeing that he was surprised, he opened his eyes and said coldly, "second uncle can make audio for Aunt Ye. Why can''t you calculate everything and disturb everything?" Ye Chenyu was silent, "but I can''t figure out why he did this to hurt both sides?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, "that''s only when you see him..." "That''s your business," Ye Chenyu stood up. "OK, I''ll go." Then he frowned slightly, "what are you doing so much? It''s made our cleaning company clean for hours..." Gu Beichen smiled helplessly and didn''t say anything. He stood up after watching Ye Chenyu leave. Walking to the rooftop, under the sun, Gu Beichen''s sight is a large view of Los Angeles. Standing on the top, you can overlook everything... But you will also bear all the problems brought by all this. ¡­¡­ The night in New York is noisy. Even if dawn is coming, you can see the figure of revelers all night in the street. However, all this noise has nothing to do with Shi Shaoqin. "Qin Shao," Xi Cheng was a little nervous, "that... May have side effects." There was no expression on Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful handsome face, but the words overflowing his lips were cold, "it''s all right, you can bury star." "..." Xi Cheng twitched at the corners of his mouth. While his throat rolled up and down involuntarily, he was secretly feigning. Meno doesn''t understand Chinese, but he seems to feel something from some strange smell "Will star be all right?" Meno asked Xi Cheng, blue eyes, some worries. Xi Cheng began to prepare, "every medicine has three poisons. If you want to have no accident, it''s impossible." He said it casually, but the movement in his hand was fast and accurate. Even, when the second stage drug is injected into star, people feel not pressure, but relaxed and casual. "Two hours at most, you can have results..." Xi Cheng received the injection. "Meno, measure your blood pressure and heart rate every ten minutes. I''m outside. If you have a problem, call me the first time." "No problem." Meno answered. Shi Shaoqin took a deep look at star in the incubator. If the medicine is effective this time, he can leave the incubator after the treatment Thinking of this, the lines on Shi shaoqinjun''s face became soft. He turned around and left the insulation room. Xi Cheng didn''t want to stay with Shi Shaoqin. Fortunately, within five minutes of the talent going out, Shi Shaoqin''s mobile phone rang Shi Shaoqin answered the phone and walked to the end of the corridor, "no, just treat me." His voice was cold. "I want to die like this. What he wants is really beautiful!" The other party was silent, "it''s estimated that the treatment can have a breath, I''m afraid not..." No, Shi Shaoqin knows very well. "Then let him live, take a breath and repent what he did in this life..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was so soft that people felt like a spring breeze, but it was mixed with a cold breath, which made people cool. "I see..." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin faintly answered and hung up the phone at the same time. Since Luo Songxian cannot be tortured, he must let him live Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly and opened them suddenly. As long as one is conscious, one should always miss the past and the present. How beautiful the past is, how painful his last years will be. Shi Shaoqin looked coldly, took out his mobile phone and dialed awei''s number, "how''s Lu Yinping?" "Qin Shao, did you put a tracker on me?" Ah Wei grinned and looked at Lu Yinping, who had just been kicked by himself and curled up on the ground, "just finished, your phone arrived." "Do it directly." Shi Shaoqin gave orders indifferently. "Not to Interpol?" Awei was a little surprised. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed, "I don''t want to catch it again..." Different from Gu Beichen, killing is his most commonly used means. Besides, star is about to return to a normal child''s life. He doesn''t want Gu Yan to have an accident! People will solve more problems only when they want to Awei answered. After Shi Shaoqin hung up the phone, he looked at Lu Yinping with a smile. "I was going to play with you, but now it''s cheaper for you..." "You, what do you want to do?" Lu Yinping looked frightened, looked at the murderous spirit on awei''s face, and hurriedly said, "don''t kill me, I can do things for you..." Awei played with a military thorn in his hand and stopped in front of Lu Yin''s plane. "You can even sell Luo Songxian... You are willing to work for me. I''m afraid I''ll be stabbed in the back one day!" "I know Gu mo... Um..." Lu Yinping''s complete words immediately widened his eyes, and his subordinates consciously covered the position of his neck The pupil is fast and lax, at the same time, I can see that there is bright red blood overflowing in the fingers. Awei got up slowly, and there was no expression on his cold face. Killing, for him, is just killing an ant. Lu Yinping''s body kept twitching and convulsing, and his loose pupils finally fell on awei''s figure... To death, the bottom of his eyes were completely unwilling! Chapter 881 Jian Mo and Shen Chu called Yu Ziyun after seeing the construction site. "Mr. Yu, I have seen the new site of the emperor. It is estimated that a group of two to four people will be formed to participate in the design team." "Just went to work, not so busy..." Yu Ziyun pondered, "the design team can transfer three or four people. You see who you want, and I''ll let Lao Tang arrange it." "This real estate is mainly aimed at young people," Jane Mo thought. "Let Xiangwan and Xiaoran participate. In addition... See who else in the design department and arrange one or two more." "Are you going to bring new people?" Yu Ziyun smiled, "Jian Mo, it''s very tired to take the new couple... You speak, but I won''t refuse. Don''t worry about your general manager at that time, come and settle with me." "Mr. Yu, I''m talking about work..." Jian Mo was helpless. "I''m talking about work, too!" Yu Ziyun picked his eyebrow, "but if so, do you want to bring one more..." "Huh?" "I lost the bet with Xiaojing two days ago and said I would bring her a new man..." Yu Ziyun was embarrassed that he didn''t lose to his wife at all. He smiled and said, "you know, where do I have time? You''re going to bring new people this time anyway, so you''ll stop by." Jane Mo can''t laugh or cry, but she secretly plans to enrich herself with her work and doesn''t let herself think about those things to adjust, so it doesn''t matter. "It''s so tired to bring new people. How many are you going to bring at once?" Shen Chu asked with some unbearable. "Xiangwan is not a newcomer, and the rest have internship basis..." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, "Michelle said. I need to use some things to divert my attention in the early stage." "Jane Mo, you know that, don''t you?" Shen Chu didn''t say it clearly. Jane Mo nodded, drooped her eyes and said bitterly, "son ah Chen told me last night..." she paused. "Shen Chu, it''s not easy for me to get together with him. I want to work hard for us." Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo for a long time "I finally understand why Beichen and I can''t get together." When Shen Chu saw Jian Mo looking at her, she smiled astringently, "because I''m not as determined as you to stand beside him." Jian Mo smiled. Now when they talk about these things, they can be very calm, "Shen Chu, if you encounter love around the corner, don''t give up..." "Must!" Shen Chu picked his eyebrows, then sat upright and started the car to drive to the emperor group. "Do you want to abandon your husband and go to dinner with me at night?" "Why?" "Out of sight, of course..." Shen Chu joked. Jane Mo glanced sideways at her and was amused by her. "If I go to dinner with you, my boss must think I don''t want to face him." "Are you tired?" Shen Chu said, "how do you know your Gu always thinks so? I don''t know your Gu always has a lot of work to do, but he needs to accompany you, so he squeezed Xiao Jing." Jane Mo frowned, "it''s also......" she paused. She had sent a text message to Gu Beichen. Mo''er: what would you think if I said that I went to have dinner with Shen Chu at night in order not to face you? Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep, and his thin lips scratched a shallow smile and replied: maybe I will think about it... But on second thought, I can''t think about it every time you go out, which doesn''t accord with my style. Jane Mo smiled and read the two people''s text messages to Shen Chu "I really want to swear!" Shen Chu gritted his teeth. "Tell me, do you want to abuse the dog in this way even at this time?" If the atmosphere is dignified, it can also be said by their bad taste. "Because he is so, it''s worth my efforts to face for him..." Jian Mo lay back on the seat and looked ahead. "I don''t know if I can defeat him, but I''m not afraid with him by my side!" The words fell, and Jian Mo smiled. As soon as she wanted to send a text message, she received a QR code photo sent by Gu Beichen. She scanned it and the content was: Mo''er, I love you until the end of the world! There is such a person who gives you firmness when your heart is disturbed all the time. What else do you have to be afraid of?! ¡­¡­ "Chen Shao, go to prison now?" Xiao Jing saw Gu Beichen out of the office and hurried to keep up. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered. At that time, he sent a text message to Shen Chu and asked her to accompany Mo''er... At this time, he was going to explore the second uncle''s voice. Gu mohuai was held in a prison in the eastern suburb of Los Angeles on a simple charge related to the shooting and killing of the Dragon Empire amusement park in Haibin city. There is no evidence, but with the ability of the Dragon owl, it is very simple to forge some witness or something. Uncle and nephew have not sat down face-to-face for a long time after they experienced the last emperor power competition case Silence makes the small reception room particularly treacherous. Because it is empty, once the air solidifies, there is no sense of circulation at all, which makes people''s heart suffocate because of the force. "Beichen, you can''t hold your breath more than I thought..." Gu muhuai took the lead in opening his mouth, with a smile in his voice. Gu Beichen calmly took out the smoke and lit it. The accompanying police officers have gone out, and the monitoring of the reception room has been cut off. "I thought you would come to see me in a few days," Gu mohuai said with a gloomy smile. "The fastest way is to wait for my eldest brother and sister-in-law to come back..." "Indeed." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips, "originally planned like this..." He flicked the cigarette ash gently, with a gentle movement and a casual look down. Gu mohuai sneered and didn''t answer. Gu Beichen took another puff of smoke, and the curl of smoke slowly diffused on his cold, carved face. "Think about the second uncle. He''s really a good means to play." "Oh?" Gu muhuai said softly. In the depths of his sight, there was a feeling that people couldn''t understand. "In fact, what I don''t understand is..." Gu Beichen slowly raised his eyes, and the sharp ink pupil shone a sharp light. "The second uncle has prepared for so many years. Is his purpose to take care of his family... Family destruction and death?" Gu mohuai''s face changed slightly, but it was just a flash and disappeared. Gu Beichen likes to kill the heart most. He doesn''t know "In order to destroy my family, do you take me in?" Gu mohuai sneered. "Uncle Gu and uncle Gu began to struggle with each other again..." at the same time, I began to think about the matter with Uncle Gu''s eyes...... " His voice became more and more heavy at last, "reuse my aunt''s business and let my mother force Jian Zhanfeng to death." He chuckled and extinguished the cigarette butts in the ashtray with a cold breath. "And all this, you didn''t take it out to make the Gu family irreparable. What''s the purpose of taking it out now?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were burning. "Even if Gu''s family fell down, with the ability of my grandmother and I, it''s possible to make a comeback... But how can it be compared with all the pain that makes the living people come?" "No, I shouldn''t say that..." Gu Beichen suddenly smiled, but that kind of smile stiffened in the corners of his mouth, and the Yin measured voice overflowed his thin lips. "Or, all this is a seamless situation... Whether it''s the death of my aunt and uncle, or the death of Jane Zhanfeng... It''s just your situation!" Chapter 882 Gu muhuai suddenly changed his face However, such emotions only disappear in a moment, which is too fast for people to capture. But Gu Beichen, who has been watching Gu mohuai, still sees it. "Beichen, if you want to excuse your sister-in-law... I have nothing to say." Gu mohuai sneered, "but in front of the evidence, I want to see how you can excuse me." Gu Beichen chuckled, "second uncle, have you forgotten?" He raised his eyebrows. "I have two of the most powerful criminal defense lawyers in Los Angeles..." No matter Mo Shaochen or Chu Zixiao, they can completely overturn right and wrong in the criminal debate and make the guilty person not guilty... For them, although it is not simple, it is not impossible. "What''s the purpose of your coming today?" Gu mohuai sneered, "never... Just to tell me that you can handle it?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes gradually became deep, and his thin lips overflowed with a faint smile like nothing That kind of smile showed the coldness of decisiveness. "Second uncle, really thank you..." Gu Beichen''s voice didn''t have the slightest temperature. "The more you do everything, but you can''t control the fact that you want Gu Zuoyan to cover up." Gu mohuai''s pupils widened slightly, as if he didn''t understand what Gu Beichen said, but he guessed again. "This time," Gu Beichen''s voice became cold, "whether it''s my uncle and aunt, or Jian Mo''s father... Second uncle, I''ll let you understand that there are no airtight walls in this world!" The words fell, Gu Beichen stood up indifferently, turned around and wanted to leave under Gu mohuai''s slightly changed face When the talent arrived at the door, Gu Beichen stopped slightly when he hit the doorknob with his hand. Gu Beichen felt the eyes that couldn''t be hidden behind him, and a pair of eagle eyes showed a mockery under the treacherous. Whether it''s him or aunt ye, in fact, they can''t be sure that all this is Gu mohuai''s trick. He didn''t want that to be true, because he didn''t want Mo''er to bear too much burden. And aunt Ye is just guessing However, he just said so much on purpose, but it was just killing his heart... All the time, the second uncle still showed his emotion. Slightly tilted his head and glanced back, "second uncle, I did so much, killing my aunt and uncle, letting my mother fall into your trap, and even indirectly killing Jane Zhanfeng..." He narrowed his eyes and looked ahead. "No matter how much I pay, I will convince you with the most legitimate evidence." Then Gu Beichen opened the door of the reception room without stopping, and lifted his feet and walked out. Behind him came Gu mohuai''s roar: "Gu Beichen, even if you guessed it, I think you can check it for so many years -" The last sound was blocked by the closed door. Gu Beichen took his pocket with one hand and walked out with calm but gloomy steps "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing''s heart coagulated slightly. Gu Beichen got into the car and a handsome face tightened, "it''s all a trap..." "I asked Xiao Nan to start checking!" Xiao Jing said and took out his mobile phone to make a call. "No," Gu Beichen stopped, "I don''t want to delay..." It''s not easy to check what Gu mohuai said for so many years? Even if we finally find out what, but how much does Mo''er have to bear in these times?! "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing frowned and looked back at Gu Beichen in the back seat of the car, as if he didn''t understand. Gu Beichen already took out his mobile phone, called out a group of numbers from the phone book, looked at them for a while, and finally dialed them out Xiao Mu is selecting people who will go to hell forest for training this year. He is obviously surprised when he receives a call from Gu Beichen. "Coming?" "I want to buy a message..." Gu Beichen said calmly. Xiao Mu frowned slightly, "are you ready to stack up before the conditions have not been realized?" "Mr. Xiao opened the conditions..." Gu Beichen''s words came out, and Xiao Jing immediately frowned. This'' Lord Xiao '', of course, he will not think that he is brother Xiao''s adoptive father. Obviously, it should be XK... Is Chen Shao going to let XK step in to check the things of that year? Although this is the most effective and fastest, XK has been eyeing Chen less since last time "Beichen, you know..." Xiao Mu''s mouth overflowed with a deep smile. "What I want is you!" "OK." Gu Beichen agreed without thinking, "within a week, I want to know the truth of the car accident between my little aunt and my little uncle and the cause of Jane Zhanfeng''s death!" Xiao Mu didn''t speak, because he didn''t expect Gu Beichen to promise so quickly. Even if Shi Shaoqin had done something before, he just agreed to work for XK for two years. "It seems that it was yesterday''s video..." Xiao Mu will know about Los Angeles. Gu Beichen is not surprised. "Is it a deal?" Xiao Mu smiled, "of course!" "I''ll wait for the news from Lord Xiao..." Gu Beichen said and hung up. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing spoke at the right time. Others didn''t know XK. He knew it. If Chen Shao really wants to pick up XK, let alone whether the emperor is in charge or not, he has to walk around the hell forest. Whether he can come out alive is a big problem. "Go back." Gu Beichen didn''t explain anything, but looked at the prison outside the window. Where and how? As long as you are with the people you love, anywhere is good However, people have greed and desire. When the real day comes, whether Gu Beichen or Xiao Mu, they forget one thing. Xiao Mu clearly remembered a woman named Jian Mo and asked him: did you talk about time at that time? For example, when ah Chen will come to XK Of course not! Then... There''s no more. Gu Beichen wants to accompany his wife, son and daughter more calmly... Naturally, people who have always said one thing and one thing, driven by Jian Mo, have also become "shameless". Think of him Xiao Mu, who dares to play him like this in the world from entering XK to finally taking over XK? Unfortunately, people grow old and have some feelings that some don''t have. Finally, under the wind of some people, they recognize that they have been "played" by Gu Beichen and Jian mo. On the way back, Los Angeles is already in full bloom, and all the bustling people can''t see the holes in the depths of the city. Gu Beichen sent a text message to Jian Mo: do you mind if I go for a meal? "Ah Chen is busy and hasn''t eaten yet... I''ll let him come." Jian Mo said to Shen Chu while she replied: Shen Chu and I are in Wangjiang building. Come here? "Of course I don''t mind paying someone..." Shen Chu didn''t care. He knew that Gu Beichen had finished the work. On one side, J has turned his mouth. "Can I say I don''t want to eat with him?" He said coldly, "you said I came to dinner without him." "Hey, why do you hate Beichen so much?" Shen Chu was a little strange. "I was in the company before. Didn''t I see you very well?" "Who is good with him?" J turned his eyes. "We''re each taking what we need..." he snorted discontentedly. "When Gu Beichen came, Jane Mo had only him in his eyes!" Chapter 883 Shen Chu burst out laughing, "if you''re 27 now, I must think you''re taking Beichen as your rival in love..." "I can''t be a rival in love at 17?" J snorted coldly. Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo and smiled, "well, you can... Just be happy." Jane Mo looked at J, "don''t like my sister. She only likes me, President Gu." J hummed in his nose, looked out of the window and muttered: "I like you, not men and women. I''m amorous... I thought I was a man killer from 8 to 88!" Shen Chu looked at J''s proud appearance and felt very happy It is said that genius is polarized, either cute or dull. Obviously, j is the former, likable kind of childish. Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing came together and asked for some more dishes "Wait, do you want to walk around?" Gu Beichen looked at Luocheng River and asked. Jane nodded and didn''t refuse. There is sadness about leaving here five years ago, but there is also the romance of Gu Beichen''s proposal in his marriage last year The same is the fireworks. No matter what mood it is, it is the memory given to her by this man. "I''m going too..." J looks like I''m a light bulb and I''m glorious. "I''m going to the game city later and I''m going to take you..." Xiao Jing shrugged. "You and Chen go less. It seems that I can only ask someone else." "..." J''s eyes brightened as soon as he heard it. "Then I won''t go on a night tour with them. I''ll go to the game city with you." "No integrity!" Shen Chu turned his eyes secretly. Because he was alone at last, he ordered the most expensive drunk shrimp in Wangjiang building angrily. No way, once a woman is depressed, she likes to have trouble with food Although it is spring, the night in Los Angeles is still cold, especially by the river. After Gu Beichen took off his suit and coat and put it on Jian Mo, he took her hand and walked along the river "Mo''er..." "Huh?" Jane morhu glanced at Gu Beichen from the corner of her mouth. Gu Beichen glanced at her, "father and mother will come back tomorrow..." Jane Mo''s face was slightly stiff, and her eyes were silent. "I know you don''t want to face them for the time being," Gu Beichen tightened his hand with Jian Mo, "but can you give me a week?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen and waited for him to continue. "I don''t want you to start slowly," Gu said in a husky voice. "I don''t want to be happy for a week." "Hmm..." Jane Mo answered softly, holding her left hand slightly. The ring chrome reached the palm, and there was a slight dull pain. Gu Beichen stopped. He didn''t know whether it was intentional or unintentional. It happened to be the area where he proposed in his marriage last year. He gently took Jian Mo into his arms, tore and ground the top of her hair with his chin, felt her breath spread on his chest, and his heart seemed to warm up. "Mo''er, I''m really grateful..." Gu Beichen''s eyes became deep. "You love me so much." Willing to work hard for me and be strong for me Jane Mo hugged Gu Beichen''s waist and rubbed his cheek against his chest. "We are husband and wife. No matter what problems we have, we should face them together..." her nose is a little sour. "I don''t have so many four years to consume." "I can''t guarantee that I will accompany you every day in the coming years..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth gently, but his voice showed the depth of the oath. "However, I will do my best to make my presence in your life every day!" Jian Mo is a enterprising person. Gu Beichen also has his own responsibility... It''s unrealistic to accompany him every day. However, they can make each other feel each other every day. Over the long years, how many surging feelings will be consumed? In fact, the last thing left is company... But how many people can do such a simple thing? ¡­¡­ The next day, the temperature in Los Angeles warmed up a little. When Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi arrived at Los Angeles International Airport, it was already more than 1 p.m. Xiao Jing drove and Gu Beichen picked it up in person. The atmosphere inside the car was a little strange. Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen, the co pilot, with his remaining light, and then secretly glanced at the two people in the back seat from the rearview mirror After swallowing, Xiao Jing drove to Gu''s manor with shener''s. Aunt LAN has come here. After all, she is the one who accompanies grandma Gu. No matter Gu Moyuan or Cen Lanxi, she has to give some face. She won''t be out of control when she turns back. "Sir and madam, I have cooked some simple meals. Would you like to have some first?" Aunt LAN is making arrangements. Gu Moyuan answered and looked at Cen Lanxi. They went into the bedroom to wash. "Wait a minute, don''t quarrel with your son..." Gu Moyuan sighed heavily. "Now things are going like this. You have to go to the Bureau tomorrow. You can also restrain your overbearing nature." "Do I shrink?" CEN Lanxi snorted coldly, "along the way, Beichen''s attitude... Is to treat me as an enemy!" "Beichen has been like this since he was kidnapped. What are you thinking about now?" Gu Moyuan was a little helpless. "You knew his attitude towards Jian Mo last year. Now the video has been burst out. Solve it first." CEN Lanxi looked at Gu Moyuan. Finally, she nodded angrily. Gu Beichen sat in the living room. After Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi finished eating, he motioned aunt LAN to make tea. "Beichen," Gu Moyuan sighed heavily and took the lead in opening his mouth, "how are you going to solve this matter? You won''t, really let your mother go to jail?" Gu Beichen didn''t have much expression on his cold face, but looked at Cen Lanxi indifferently, "there''s Shaochen here. If mom doesn''t want to go to jail, can she go?" "What do you mean by that?" CEN Lanxi couldn''t control his original forbearance. "You think I killed Jane Zhanfeng, so I''m going to jail for Jane Mo, don''t you?" "Mom..." Gu Beichen converged his sight and looked out of the window slightly. The afternoon sunshine is particularly good. Even if there is a depression after winter in the manor, it makes people feel that the years are quiet and good. "You are my family, Mo''er..." Gu Beichen glanced at Cen Lanxi. "She is my lover." Xiao Jing is at the small bar not far away, with a steel lighter in his hand, and his heart is a little heavy Although Chen Shao didn''t say anything, he seemed to feel something. All the time, I''ve been hiding things. For a Jane Mo, is Chen Shao going to give up that little self-esteem? "You gave birth to me, but Mo''er was the one who made me reborn from the darkness..." Gu Beichen''s voice was a little distant. Gu Moyuan suddenly frowned, as if he felt what his son was going to say. "Haven''t you always been curious about where and what I have experienced in the three months since I was kidnapped?" Gu Beichen''s voice was still very light, "I''ll tell you now..." Chapter 884 Gu Moyuan frowned suddenly, looked at his son, and suddenly resisted him to continue That kind of inexplicable sadness and gradually looming weakness should not be what Beichen should have. Whether it''s the sunshine before kidnapping or the indifference after kidnapping... Beichen has always been confident and arrogant. CEN Lanxi and Gu Moyuan subconsciously looked at each other and looked at Gu Beichen, "Beichen..." Gu Beichen pulled his eyes back from Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi and looked out of the landing window This is the afternoon. The sunshine is only good. The warmth makes people seem to forget time and years, and can only be precipitated in the memory of the past. Whether it is beautiful or dark, there are sunny flowers around you during the day and stars guiding you at night Gu Beichen feels that all the past is just the past. I still remember that year, when it was the green rainy season. With a book in his hand and no umbrella, he walked in the drizzle, with a shallow smile on his mouth, looking at a pair of lovers under the eaves in front of him The boy was afraid of the rain falling on the girl, facing her and shielding her from the rain with his own body. Pure love shows the beauty of being ignorant and hazy. Even in rainy days, it seems that the mood also opens beautiful flowers At that time, I was thinking that he could also encounter such a beautiful girl that he was willing to protect with all he had. It''s just that everything has changed because of a change It seems that he is about to forget the most pure extravagant hope. Fortunately, he has never missed this love. "In this world, where there is sunshine, there will be shadows..." Gu Beichen looked out of the window. His sight was a little blurred. He opened his mouth gently, but his voice was very calm. "Those shadows we can''t see are often more degenerate than darkness." CEN Lanxi frowned and just looked at her son who was not very close to her. "Three months is enough to destroy a person... Let him be doomed!" Gu Beichen''s voice suddenly became self deprecating, paused, but calmed down again. "I was taken to a place that I didn''t want to set foot on in my life..." Gu Beichen smiled with thin lips. It was very shallow, which made people confused whether he was by heart or ridicule. "The people there have no self-esteem, because they have been trampled!" Gu Moyuan''s heart suddenly "clattered". Without big experience, it is difficult to change the temperament developed from childhood He knows that. And Beichen came back after the kidnapping and was no longer the sunshine boy "You can''t imagine how I feel in infinite shock and panic every day, whether I''m asleep or awake..." Gu Beichen thought and crossed the appearance when I first arrived at the ink palace. Being stripped naked and thrown into an iron cage is just like a dog, but there is a chain missing Passers by, there is no sympathy in those eyes, only greed. Even, someone reacted to him and made some obscene actions in front of him, just enjoying it, even if they couldn''t touch him! Under the education of his grandmother, his world is clean and pure, sunny and full of hope. He never knew that there was such a thing in the world. He didn''t know that he could make men so excited He woke up in a nightmare every day, and when he woke up, he had to continue to face such things. Over and over again, his spirit completely collapsed, just like a frightened bird! Ten days, ten whole days He seemed to have forgotten that he was still alive. If it weren''t for the belief instilled by his grandmother and grandfather, and the only thing left, he would really be dead! Everything there overturned all his growth memories and beautiful yearnings. Gu Beichen said faintly. There was not much emotion in his voice. It was as if he was telling a story, but also someone else''s story Gu Moyuan had widened his eyes and looked incredulously at his arrogant and domineering son. CEN Lanxi''s face was completely shocked and unwilling to believe. Xiao Jing''s mouth was full of undisguised ridicule. He lowered his eyes slightly and looked at the turning lighter in his hand In fact, he really wanted to see Cen Lanxi''s expression and see if they forced Chen to be so little, and whether there was any remorse under remorse. But he didn''t dare to see Because his sight looked past, first of all, he saw the sadness on Chen Shao! Aunt LAN stood at the kitchen door, holding the cut fruit in her hand, crying silently. Even if these past, because of the old lady, she knows all However, hearing Chen Shao speak out by herself, she felt more distressed than ever. "Fortunately, there are only ten days like this..." Gu Beichen continued. "Later, I was locked in another room with only one small window, and the rest was completely closed." "At least, I don''t need to be watched. Even, I have clothes to wear..." Gu Beichen chuckled, "well, I feel like I want to live." However, his hope was soon extinguished. At that time, he met Shi Shaoqin for the first time. He told him that the person who sent him here was Gu muhuai At first, he screamed wildly because there was no other way to vent. Later, he knew that Shi Shaoqin was trying to keep him alive He is the same as Shi Shaoqin in the past. Shi Shaoqin has to live and suffer. Of course he can''t die! Next, he will watch a group of people do those obscene things in front of him every day. Those people don''t know whether they are excited because of each other or because of his resistance under the nearby shivering and panic. Anyway, he needs to accept an upgraded version every day "Stop talking!" CEN Lanxi finally couldn''t stand shouting. She burst into tears and said in pain and hoarseness, "Beichen, please, stop..." "That person wants me to be the person around him," Gu Beichen didn''t stop because of Cen Lanxi''s resistance, and his voice was still calm. "However, in this environment, every day... I just want to escape more." "I resist, I can''t even hide..." Gu Beichen chuckled, as if watching the film, and his mind was full of the picture at that time. In order to force him or even let him take off his clothes, Shi Shaoqin tried to make those men do something to him From the time he was surrounded and looked obscene, to later... Looking at those filthy pictures for so many days, Shi Shaoqin knew what he was most afraid of. He compromised, he said he stayed with him Of course, Shi Shaoqin would not believe what he said at all. A new round of torture, he wants to completely destroy his will. If it wasn''t Shi Jue Chi''s bread, would he really degenerate? Three months, three months in Mo palace He wants to live and escape under the influence of Shi Shaoqin. If it''s not the Dragon boss, can he really go? "Stop talking -" Cen Lanxi suddenly stood up and cried sharply. Gu Beichen finally took back his sight, turned his head to Cen Lanxi and smiled He is handsome and has inherited the beauty of Cen Lanxi. At this moment, with such a smile, the sun also falls on his face from the window, which is particularly beautiful. However, such a smile formed a strong contrast with Cen Lanxi''s pain. Gu Beichen still clearly remembers how shocked and distressed grandpa and grandma were when they heard this They educate big, sunny and hopeful children... But they have been subverted in just a few months. It''s not helplessness, but heartache. It''s not his painstaking efforts, or his life "Mom," Gu Beichen asked with a slight smile, "do you think it''s over when you leave there?" Chapter 885 "Beichen..." Gu Moyuan''s eyes were already red. The corners of his mouth trembled and he couldn''t speak. Even, he can''t imagine that all this is caused by consideration All along, he only thought that Beichen was fighting with the second son because of the power struggle of the emperor group. When was he competent as a father? Gu Beichen Xu is a little tired. Xu wants to feel the sunshine closer He got up and went to the French window. Facing the sun, he can give Mo''er the most support, can''t he? "After I left there... I went to England." Gu Beichen''s voice didn''t have much waves from beginning to end. He ignored the sight Gu Moyuan wanted to stop, the nerve that Cen Lanxi was about to bear, the bath look that Xiao Jing often impulsively wanted to pull him away, and the sadness of aunt lan He just calmly told his past, but he was talking in the tone of others'' stories "Fight, take drugs, gather people to do things that are as corrupt as they are..." Gu Beichen said, "what about leaving there? Anyway, my life is ruined..." Speaking of this, Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and was afraid to see the sun. At that moment, his heart was trembling. He is not as calm as he seems. He said that although he can face all this, it doesn''t mean he doesn''t feel it anymore Xiao Jing''s eyes were red, but not because of sadness, but because of anger. He grabbed the lighter and wanted to roar at Cen Lanxi and ask: is Chen Shao your own son? Have you considered Chen Shao for your little things?! He thought, but he didn''t Because he knows what Chen Shao is talking about at the moment! Gu Beichen felt that he couldn''t speak any more. For a long time, he didn''t speak. If he still has some faith to live in the Mo palace, he really abandoned himself after being brought to England by the Dragon Owl The mobile phone vibrated in his pocket at the right time. Gu Beichen took it out and cut it open Mo''er: Mr. Gu, J and I are sweeping the sun supermarket. I didn''t drive. An hour later, you let the omnipotent Xiao tezhu pick us up! Looking at the expression of "kiss" at the end, Gu Beichen''s mouth gradually overflowed with a smile. Every time, really every time As long as he is about to fall into "death", this woman always happens to give him traction! What a magical feeling? Sun supermarket is owned by the Dragon Empire and is related to the Dragon boss. At the moment, Mo''er sends a text message under such circumstances When he left that period of his life, the two most important people! Gu Beichen replied with a smile: I''ll pick you up later. Mo''er: don''t you have to accompany them? Gu Beichen obviously feels Jian Mo''s resistance, but because of him, he is trying to accept and don''t think much. His simple reply: pick you up and wait for me! Jian Mo looked at the simple and domineering reply, smiled at the corner of his mouth and replied: OK, I''ll wait for you! In this world, if there is a man who is willing to do anything for you, you should also work hard for him After all, it''s none of his business, isn''t it?! ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen accepted the mobile phone. At the moment, he has gathered the heavy hostility of those memories of the past and the pain under Cen Lanxi''s resistance, which is somewhat incompatible. Turning around, the sun was scattered from Gu Beichen, and the shadow was projected to the front. Gu Beichen felt that with Jian Mo around him, he really had nothing to face. "Later, I was dragged to compulsory detoxification by the Dragon owl, and he began to wash my past..." Gu Beichen said, looking at the tearful Cen Lanxi. "He said, will I really be reconciled if I go on like this?" Yes, how could he be reconciled? All this was done by Gu mohuai. Even if he died, he couldn''t feel better. After grandpa and grandma knew this, grandpa put some shares in the second uncle... Just to let him live at all costs. Even if he wants to get married, he can get the shares. In fact, they always understand him Such unbearable, perhaps only the return to the normal relationship between men and women can bring him back. However, he didn''t know if he could still be here if he wasn''t Mo''er. It can''t be true?! After all... There is no such pure expression of Jian Mo in this world, whether it is for money or for him! "Mom, if it weren''t for Jian Mo, I would have planned to live and die after fighting with Gu mohuai..." Gu Beichen said, and no one doubted his words. "Mom should thank Jane Mo for her appearance, so I''m still here now. Even trying to live better, just because I don''t want her to be sad for me..." Gu Beichen pulled down the corner of his mouth mockingly, "but... She''s still sad." Gu Moyuan stood up slowly. He almost guessed that Beichen said these things today "She''s sad," Gu Beichen''s ink pupil stared at Cen Lanxi deeply. "It''s because my mother ruined her family..." he mocked himself and hooked the corner of his mouth, "what can I do?" "She loves me..." Gu Beichen restrained his smile and became a little helpless, "and you are my mother!" In a word, cen Lanxi forgot to cry. Xiao Jing''s drooping eyes slowly lifted up and fell on Cen Lanxi. Aunt Lan''s tears didn''t stop. Her hand holding the fruit plate was getting tighter and tighter. "Mom, no matter in the past or now, I never expect what you can do..." Gu Beichen''s voice showed a trace of forbearance, "but now, you owe Mo''er an apology, don''t you?" "I......" Cen Lanxi subconsciously wanted to refute, but when he came to his mouth, because Gu Beichen couldn''t say the sadness overflowing from the bottom of his eyes. "In fact, even if you say it now, I don''t agree..." Gu Beichen turned around again and let the sun envelop him, "how can I bear to accept it because of your apology?" It seems to be self whispering. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil becomes deep and bottomless "When I deal with this matter, if I can deal with it..." Gu Beichen youyou said, "Mom, you owe me and Mo''er this apology!" The words fell, Gu Beichen slightly tilted his head, glanced back, and turned away from the manor without saying anything His steps looked clear and steady, but Xiao Jing who followed him knew how heavy it was. What''s the point of apologizing today? Only when XK finds out everything, if Jian Zhanfeng''s death is really not directly related to Cen Lanxi That apology must be given to Mrs. Chen Shao. "Chen Shao, go back to the company?" Xiao Jing got into the car and asked. "Go to sun!" Gu Beichen opened his mouth faintly and thought of the text message, but he smiled from his heart, "wait until you get to the city, go back to the company by yourself, and I''ll use the car..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth. He started the car with some dissatisfaction and muttered, "Chen Shao, if you go out to the city and are a little far from the company, you can''t go back to the company first. Can you drive again?" "But I don''t want Mo''er to wait..." Gu Beichen looked at the front seriously. "Big purchases should be very heavy, right?" "..." Xiao Jing grinned, looked at Gu Beichen in the rearview mirror and said, "Chen Shao, I can''t refute your reason!" Xiao Jing chuckled. He was driving at a fast speed. He was already sick of Gu Beichen several times It''s really sad to meet a boss with a wife and no humanity! But why did he follow so willingly? The dignity in the car seems to be dissipated in an instant In fact, it''s useless to say and think now... Only wait for the news of XK and wait for all the dust to settle! Chapter 886 After Xiao Jing''s car entered the urban area, it stopped at a place. "Chen Shao, do you need to go to the police station?" "No," Gu Beichen looked out of the window. "Shaochen will accompany them tomorrow. There will be no problem with him." "OK..." Xiao Jing answered and opened the door to get off. Gu Beichen went to the driver''s seat, just opened the door, as if he thought of something, "back up the gift to the Lin family..." Whether it''s a codebook or Haibin City, there is no old Lin, and there is not so much face to mobilize the assault team to the south. "I''ll arrange it later!" Xiao nodded and watched Gu Beichen drive away. When Gu Beichen arrived at Sun supermarket, Jian Mo and j were still making big purchases. He just ignored the attention of others. From a distance, he watched Jian Mo pick and choose in front of a pile of vegetables, and j broke it from time to time The corners of the mouth could not help but overflow a faint smile, as if the sadness in the manor at that time was illusory. "Jian Mo Jian Mo...... this!" J was suddenly excited and jumped in front of Jian Mo with some colored peppers. "Colorful, how nice!" "But I can''t use it tonight..." Jane Mo directly rejected it. J''s face immediately suffered, "but what you buy is what Gu Beichen likes to eat... No matter, I want to eat this!" With that, he didn''t care and put it directly into the shopping cart. Jane Mo was a little embarrassed. "Kiss, you haven''t weighed yet." "..." J looked at the colorful peppers scattered in the shopping cart and looked at Jian Mo somewhat depressed. "Anyway, you didn''t weigh!" "Wait, I''ll weigh it..." The low voice came in time. Jian Mo and j looked over and saw Gu Beichen packing the scattered colored peppers with a bag. "Why are you so fast?" Jane Mo looked at the time and asked with a smile. J also looked curious. "The most important thing is that it''s so big here. How did you find it?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Jian Mo, "as if... When you come to the supermarket after you marry me, you usually come to buy vegetables!" Jane was stunned. "It seems that it really is..." she despised herself, but she said with a smile, "no way, I''m too fast to enter the role of wife!" Gu Beichen''s mouth also hung a smile from his heart. It was faint, but it was spoiled. At present, many people come to the supermarket to buy vegetables. Almost none of them don''t know Gu Beichen. Now, there are also many people who know Jian mo. "Hey, Jane Mo doesn''t know what good she did in her last life. Gu Beichen is a man in this life..." a housewife said bitterly, "such a busy man doesn''t know how much money he controls, but he is here to accompany her to the supermarket." "There''s nothing to envy. It''s not for money..." someone snorted coldly. "She''s still very happy with her enemies." "That''s true..." the housewife who spoke before picked the dishes casually. "My mother-in-law killed her father, but she didn''t care at all. Anyway, she has a rich husband, who cares about him!" "What are you talking about?" "Ah!" J suddenly ran to the two men, and the housewife was startled. "I''m not afraid to speak ill of people behind their backs..." J''s whole face was filled with anger. "I think people like you are suitable to be killed by a car when you go out, and then you can meet Gu Beichen after reincarnation!" "Psycho..." the housewife and the people around her looked at each other. In the end, she was afraid of Gu Beichen. After scolding, she ignored J and went to the other side. J hummed coldly and wanted to hit the onion in his hand directly on the woman''s face Of course, if he wasn''t afraid of being angry with Jane, he would really smash it. J turned around unhappily and saw Jian Mo picking condiments in front, completely ignoring the thin and broken voices of those people. "Mo''er doesn''t care," Gu Beichen said to j after weighing back, passing by J''s body, looking at Jian Mo deeply. "It''s just that she doesn''t want to affect her life because of other people''s remarks." Then Gu Beichen didn''t stop, but pushed the shopping cart to Jian Mo''s side J is a pure child. Even if he has been in Mo palace for so many years, his thought is actually simple. Jian Mo likes this child. Gu Beichen also hopes that he can actively face life in the future, just like Mo''er After the family bought something, they went to line up to check out. There were two big bags full. Back home, Jian Mo cooked by herself. Gu Beichen started next to him. J is still one of the helpers. "That..." Jane thought, and some didn''t know how to ask. "Mom will go to the police station tomorrow," Gu Beichen said softly. "Shaochen will accompany you." "Oh..." Jane Mo answered and continued to be busy, but the corners of her mouth began to crack. "Whether it''s because of identity or something, Mo''er, mom is expected to be insured." Gu Beichen said without concealment, "if I really investigate some follow-up problems, I don''t know what I will do in the end." "I understand..." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth, "ah Chen, in fact, you don''t need to worry about me." Gu Beichen stopped the action in his hand, and even the playing J looked at Jian mo. "No matter how, father and mother can''t come back..." the corners of Jane Mo''s mouth are tighter, "just, forgive... I can''t do it." Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen calmly. "So, just do what you need to do... After all, you are a son of man!" Gu Beichen''s heart twitched uncontrollably. He quietly looked at the woman in front of him In what mood did she say this? Just because of him, I don''t want him to be in a dilemma... So, does he want her to be in a dilemma? "I''ll handle it," Gu Beichen said without saying anything more. "Believe me, that''s enough." ¡­¡­ Mpumalanga, South Africa. Xiao Mu sat on the recliner, with the steaming Kung Fu Tea on the small table at hand. "Lord Xiao, there''s news from Los Angeles." "Huh?" Xiao Mu just answered softly. It was only one day. He knew it wasn''t so fast. "Initially, every step of the plan is very careful," the person at the bottom calmly reported. "At least, whether it''s the accident of Mo Huai and Cen Yulan or the fall of Jian Zhanfeng, it''s done perfectly." Xiao Mu slowly tilted his head and smiled softly at the corners of his mouth. "There is nothing in the world that can be done without any gap." "Yes!" The visitor bowed his head and looked respectful. "How many days will it take?" Xiao Mu looked back and said with some sigh, "Alas, I''ve thought about Gu Beichen for so many years... Especially after Luo Songxian, I don''t want to wait!" The visitor looked up at Xiao Mu and said firmly, "no more than five days..." Chapter 887 After dinner, Jane Jie and Jane Mo are talking on video. The little guy was completely isolated from his world by Su Jun because he was abroad. In addition, there are too many new things in this music festival. Obviously, Jane Jie is playing a little crazy. "How do I feel that you are really going to be taken away by the Su family?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at the excited Jian Jie. "Uncle Li is Uncle Li, you are Daddy..." Jane Jie grinned and smiled in her bright eyes, "it''s different." Make complaints about Jane''s smile in Beichen. The smile on thin lips has caused J''s Secret Tucao. The "buzzing" mobile phone vibrated. After Gu Beichen said something to Jian Jie, he took out his mobile phone and walked aside, "Shaochen?" "I''m in blues. Do you have time to come over?" Mo Shaochen said in a dignified voice, "Zixiao is also there." Gu Beichen felt something wrong with the atmosphere and looked back at Jian Mo, who was still talking to Jian Jie, "I''ll be there in an hour." "OK, wait for you." Gu Beichen hung up the phone, spoke to Jian Mo, and drove to blues. As soon as he entered the exclusive area, Gu Beichen felt the dignified breath, "what''s the matter?" While asking, he had already sat down opposite them. "Zixiao and I have studied. Things are a little tricky..." Mo Shaochen solemnly pushed a file bag to Gu Beichen. "Second uncle obviously prepared for a rainy day. All the evidence is too clear." "Even if I join hands with Shaochen, under such evidence, I want to call a deer a horse..." Chu Zixiao''s voice was a little depressed. "I''m afraid grandma can''t retreat all over." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, just took out the information and looked at Whether it''s photos or materials, as Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao said, it''s not easy to win the lawsuit. The most important thing is that even if they win... I''m afraid they will fall into the trap. This is not what he wants. "When will the court inform the hearing?" Gu Beichen asked. "Next Wednesday." Chu Zixiao replied. Gu Beichen calculated the time, "delay..." Mo Shaochen looked at Chu Zixiao and asked, "how long?" "Friday!" "OK..." Mo Shaochen answered and then stared at Gu Beichen. "Beichen, what are you... Going to do about this?" He asked. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were uncontrollably fixed on Gu Beichen. Even if you don''t have any idea about Jian Mo now, it''s his past. He loved and hurt... Now, I just hope she can be happy, that''s all. "What can I do?" Gu Beichen''s eyes became deep, and some of them lay lazily on the sofa. "Mom, can you not? Or can I choose?" Chu Zixiao frowned, "Beichen..." "It''s not easy for me and Mo''er to be together, and no one wants to give up each other..." Gu Beichen glanced at Chu Zixiao lightly, without much emotion, but then looked at Mo Shaochen, "Shaochen, I want to know what you think?" After all, in the data, it is very clear that the death of Mo Huai and Cen Yulan was caused by Jian Zhanfeng. "Jian Mo can try to face his aunt because of you..." Mo Shaochen''s voice showed a trace of calm. "Can''t I not add the gratitude and resentment of the previous generation to Jian Mo because of you?" He is a lawyer. He sees too many extended joys and sorrows due to additional or incidental grievances Is he not as good as a woman in the end?! "Your words are enough..." Gu Beichen got up. "I''ll go back first. You can discuss the rest with Zixiao." "OK." Mo Shaochen answered. Gu Beichen just wanted to take a step up and suddenly stopped. "Zixiao, I owe you an apology..." he glanced at Chu Zixiao, "I owe you a thank you, too." Chu Zixiao pulled bitterness from the corners of his mouth and opened his eyes slightly: "let her be happy... Then she," he paused and slowly raised his eyes and said, "then she will always be my little aunt!" Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao looked at each other, said nothing more, and left with a steady step The next day, the weather in Los Angeles was still good. The news of Cen Lanxi''s return for investigation began to spread widely. Because the emperor did not control public opinion, the news was released on several more credible media. The citizens of Los Angeles seem to have new conversation after years, and they are shouting for Jane Mo''s psychological shadow area Time passed day by day, as the in-depth investigation began. Whether Cen Lanxi is under investigation or on bail, people are paying attention to this matter as soon as they open their eyes every day. But all this seems to have nothing to do with Jane Morse While receiving psychotherapy, she led the temporary Xiangyu team to participate in the design of the emperor''s residential building. Busy, she even has no time to eat with Gu Beichen. Where can she have time to listen to those people''s gossip? Besides She has been on the emperor''s side these days. Who dares to talk about the gossip of the president and the president''s wife?! "Sister Mo," Xiang night put the design drawing of an internship assistant in front of Jian Mo, "do you think the style of Lubai is very similar to Xiaoran?" Jane Mo looked and couldn''t help laughing, "are you testing my IQ?" "Huh?" Jane Mo turned her eyes. "This is exactly what Xiaoran painted, isn''t it?" "Sister Mo, it''s really not..." Mu Xiaoran rubbed enough, "I''m stunned... Tut Tut, this man under sister Xiaojing can''t be cloned from my cells?" "..." when Jian Mo heard this, he was surprised that his pupils widened and looked at the design drawings carefully, just like discovering the new world. "Guess what sister Mo is thinking now?" Mu Xiaoran met the next night and asked in a low voice. Xiang night, an old God touched his chin, "how to dig the corner of president Yu''s wife..." she tilted her head, "but if you dig it, you and Lubai are invincible." There is no need to run in at all... This is the most extravagant demand of the design team. "If I dig deer white, will sister Xiaojing kill me?" Jane Mo raised her head and asked seriously. Xiang night and mu Xiaoran both nodded, but said in one voice: "sister Mo, we support you... If sister Xiaojing kills you, you''ll throw out president Gu and kill her!" "Good suggestion..." Jane nodded with a feasible face. However, Gu Beichen, who had just arrived at the design department, looked gloomy. Xiao Jing followed with a smile. Several versions have been outlined in his mind Well, the bullying version of the president''s wife of the emperor! Jian Mo''s sight was blocked by mu Xiaoran and Xiang night, and she couldn''t see Gu Beichen at the door of the office. The three people who discussed the plan of digging the foot of the wall talked more and more, and they could hardly wait to act now. Listening to Jane Mo''s charming words, Gu Beichen couldn''t help laughing Without disturbing Jane Mo''s interest, Gu Beichen didn''t disturb her and turned away... He just suddenly thought of her and came down from this floor to see her. "Inform the relevant departments of real estate," Gu Beichen said while leaving the design department, "increase the investment in real estate this year." "All cooperate with Xiangyu?" Xiao Jing asked some knowingly. Gu Beichen glanced at him, and there was a clear haze on his cold face. "Chen Shao, is it really good for you to use public affairs for private interests like this?" Xiao Jing didn''t seem to see Gu Beichen''s gloomy face and asked. Gu Beichen took back his sight indifferently and said naturally, "my wife, I''d like to... Have a problem?" "..." Xiao Jing pulled the corners of his mouth and said, "Chen Shao, you are so incorruptible. Seriously, I really have nothing to say." Gu Beichen ignored Xiao Jing and just walked to the elevator As soon as the talent entered the elevator, the mobile phone vibrated. Take it out. It''s a group of calls with hidden numbers. While Gu Beichen picked it up, his heart tightened, "master Xiao..." "There''s a result." The voice of Xiao Mu''s indifference came slowly. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes suddenly got together. He didn''t expect that XK just finished checking the things in the past for so long in less than five days. "What is the result?" Gu Beichen''s breath congealed a little, "what happened in those years... Is it related to my mother?" Chapter 888 "The results and information have been sent to your mailbox." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, worried, but he didn''t directly ask Xiao Mu the answer, "thank you, master Xiao..." Xiao Mu gathered his eyes slightly. "At any time, don''t reveal your emotions because of the people or things you care about..." his voice was deep and far, "otherwise, you will only lose the most accurate judgment." "Yes!" Gu Beichen''s voice was full of reverence. "Beichen," Xiao Mu shouted and smiled, "I''m waiting for you to come to XK to find me..." Gu Beichen was silent, and then answered, "OK!" After Xiao Mu hung up, Gu Beichen hung up. He couldn''t wait to go back to the office and entered the mailbox. Looking at the detailed information, Gu Beichen said that he was not shocked. It was all false. Who would have thought that a person should have done so many things for a "belief" of revenge? "Chen Shao, what should I do next?" Xiao Jing''s heart churned like a raging sea, "this is too exaggerated!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips have become a straight line, and the eagle''s eyes have gradually become deep, "give it to Shaochen... He knows how to deal with it." Since he didn''t control the public opinion in the past two days, everything is still exposed in the media He wants to give Mo''er the cleanest world, not the environment that people criticize and point at behind. Friday. For Los Angeles, everyone''s focus today is that the court will open at 10 o''clock. It''s about the case of Jian Zhanfeng, general manager of Yuanda construction company, who fell from a building seven years ago. The media has been jammed at the door of the court. Because it involves the family in Los Angeles, and the relationship between Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, today''s court session has attracted extensive attention. "According to our reporter''s report," the host said skillfully on TV, "today, because of the relationship between Cen Lanxi, a famous lawyer in the criminal defense circle, Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao will cooperate for the first time..." "Our reporter sent back the news from the court that Cen Lanxi has arrived at the court..." "The case that Cen Lanxi may be the murderer of Jian Mo''s father Jian Zhanfeng is about to open, and our reporter will continue to follow up and report..." "Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao have an invincible myth in the criminal debate circle. Can this joint effort create another myth, subvert people''s Three Outlooks and turn black and white upside down..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Various media, like crazy, speculate about the upcoming case. Both the parties involved and Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao, who cooperated with the capital this time, have enough talk capital to let everyone pay attention to today''s case. "Sister Mo......" Mu Xiaoran couldn''t calm down and looked sad. Jane Mo continued to draw the design drawing. "No matter what the result is," she didn''t lift her head. "I can''t change anything. It''s just that there are some things we need to understand. What do we really want to grasp?" Xiangwan and mu Xiaoran looked at each other and opened their mouths one after another. "Take a break?" Shen Chu brought in two cups of coffee, motioned xiaxiangwan and mu Xiaoran, and asked, "I''m not curious about the result at all?" "Curious..." Jane Mo put down the drawing pen, "but I''m not as curious as I thought." Shen Chu saw Jian Mo leave the design table and handed her a cup of coffee. "I think Beichen can handle it..." "Yes." Jane Mo smiled, her eyes overflowing with bright light, "I believe him, too." "Listen to Michelle, you''ve been working hard these days?" "I want to be early..." Jian Mo sighed lightly. "I''m afraid I''m already pressing things. When I turn back, I''ll accumulate more in my heart, but it will collapse." "Also..." Shen Chu nodded approvingly. "Depression can''t be relieved most of the time." She paused. "How do you feel?" "I think it will be fine." Jane Mo smiled. "Ah Chen has done so much for me. I may not be able to do anything for him, but at least I can manage myself and don''t let him worry so much, can''t I?" "Just drive as you can think..." The imperial design department is still calm, but the outside world has been shaking "Mr. Gu has arrived..." I don''t know who shouted. Suddenly, all the congestion that swarmed every day came forward. Xiao Jing got out of the car and opened the door for Gu Beichen. One by one, the cameramen took pictures of Gu Beichen as if their hands were cramped "Mr. Gu, the case is basically confirmed. Can you talk about your participation in the case?" "Does the combination of Mo Bian and Chu Bian mean that you want to control the whole case..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± "Excuse me," Xiao Jing said quietly, blocking the reporter. "Chen Shao won''t answer any questions at the moment." "Chen Shao, can you talk about your opinion?" A reporter didn''t seem to hear Xiao Jing''s words, handed over the radio and came forward, "If today''s case is implemented, will you and Jane Mo continue to marry?" Gu Beichen suddenly stopped, and the eagle''s eyes crossed the reporter sharply. The scene that was about to get out of control suddenly became quiet. Some people are born to look up at the world Gu Beichen''s eyes crossed, and the originally sharp reporters swallowed involuntarily because of fear. "No matter how it turns out today," Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips. "Jane Mo and I will only go on for each other... Is this answer satisfactory?" His voice had nothing to do with the noise of the world, and his voice seemed to have nothing to do with the noise of the world. After being stunned for a moment, the media went crazy again and took photos of Gu Beichen''s back On the Internet, because of Gu Beichen''s words, it has become a hot topic. Even, the topic of microblog, we all brought "just for each other". Once, the names of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo became a hot topic of microblog. Ten o''clock. The case of Jian Zhanfeng''s falling from a building was officially opened. Due to the semi closed court session, no media can enter except two official TV stations and magazines in Los Angeles However, what everyone didn''t expect was that this court session was in the form of live broadcast from beginning to end. Even, everyone knew at the moment of live broadcast... Suddenly, there was an uproar. "God, is Gu Beichen crazy?" Someone exclaimed. "We really don''t understand the world of rich people..." someone sighed. "I think it''s just a fool..." naturally, some people abuse. ¡°¡­¡­¡± However, when the court session began, everyone''s eyes were attracted by the case In terms of technology alone, the two famous mouths are actually on one side against the whole legal aid team. However, a video has become the most favorable evidence. In the case of live broadcast, Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao want to overturn black and white. Even if they win, their reputation will be destroyed But at this moment, no one thought that when the truth was placed in people''s sight layer by layer, it was so shocking! Chapter 889 "God, this is terrible?" "This is a model of crime... If such a seamless plan is not a live broadcast of the court session, I simply think Gu Beichen is trying to cover up the truth and making nonsense." "Tut Tut, this series of criminal techniques can be regarded as science and education films..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Citizens are stunned to express their views one by one. No one is not surprised. The whole story of this matter will be like this. What''s more puzzling is that Gu muhuai has done so many purposes. What is it? It can''t be just to seize power?! "Sister mo..." shouted to the night. Ignoring the dissatisfied eyes of the whole designer, he hurried to the design room where Jian Mo drew the design drawings. "What''s the matter?" Jane Mo has no change in her temperament as she grows older, which means she has a headache. "Look at the Internet..." Xiang night said, having handed over his mobile phone, "I couldn''t help it, and then went to the forum." Jane Mo doesn''t want to see it. She doesn''t care about the result of today''s court session. Whether Cen Lanxi is the murderer of his father or not, ah Chen has his responsibility as a son. After all, it still takes time for baocen to face it, but it''s not her fault. "No, you see..." worried to the night, "it''s not what we thought. President Gu was really framed... The live videos of the online court session came out." Jane Mo frowned slightly and looked at the night. After all, she still took the mobile phone. However, when Jane Mo read it from beginning to end, she said she was not shocked. It was all fake In fact, many places mentioned in the article are still obscure, and some of them are not very clear. But Jane Mo is a party. She probably understands the whole thing in series From the beginning to the end, it was Gu mohuai''s plot, from the beginning of framing his mother and Gu Moyuan, to the later death of Mo Huai and Cen Yulan, and then Cen Lanxi forced his father to death In fact, to put it bluntly, if the purpose of this bureau is put aside, the process is still easy to understand. Gu mohuai took advantage of Cen Lanxi''s jealousy and knew that Jian Zhanfeng liked Su mo. he also took advantage of this to do tricks on Mo Huai and Cen Yulan''s car. At the same time, he led Jian Zhanfeng to the car and caused the accident. But who knows, because there was a little accident in Jane Zhanfeng''s car on the road at that time, the matter was not handled so perfectly This is also the reason why later in court, Jane Zhanfeng will be acquitted. However, once a person has planted the seeds of anger in his heart, he will not be able to stand provocation Gu mohuai made use of Cen Lanxi''s resentment against Su Mo and Jian Zhanfeng''s hatred of killing his sister. It was natural to "force" him to death. However, no one thought that the roof of the building that day had been treated. First, there was a problem with the construction site and cheated Jane Zhanfeng, who was already worried because the company was hollowed out at that time Then, with the appearance of Cen Lanxi, Gu muhuai took advantage of their psychology, resulting in the death of Jian Zhanfeng. The angle of the video is just at the moment when Cen Lanxi stretched out his hand Everything is seamless, which makes people feel like a play, but it''s not a play! But what is the ultimate purpose of this matter? It''s unclear whether Gu mohuai wants to bury his family together or whether he has a deeper purpose! In this court session, if the favorable evidence dug up, whether it is win or lose today, family care and the emperor, are resisted by some fierce elements because of the manipulation of the law. Such an effect may seem small, but it is easy to be stirred in the eyes of people who don''t know the truth Public opinion is often the most humble straw that overwhelms high-rise buildings. "The court announced," after the judge looked around, he spoke steadily, "Cen Lanxi was not convicted of murdering Jian Zhanfeng and was released in court... In addition, Gu mohuai was convicted of nine charges and sentenced to deprivation of political rights for life... Life imprisonment!" The judge''s voice was sonorous and powerful. At the moment, inside and outside the court, everyone was excited. Whether it is mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao''s technical eloquence and means, or all kinds of evidence, people have to sigh that this lawsuit was fought beautifully! CEN Lanxi''s eyes have been red and she has lived for most of her life. It seems that she didn''t wake up until this moment. Gu Moyuan hugged her shoulder and gently comforted CEN Lanxi looked at Gu Beichen, whose face was always indifferent, and her lips were shaking. She wanted to say something, but she didn''t know what to say. "Beichen..." Cen Lanxi shouted. Gu Beichen and Cen Lanxi looked at each other and said nothing. They just turned around and left from the channel on the other side. CEN Lanxi and Gu Moyuan looked at Gu Beichen''s figure in this way until they disappeared from the bottom of their eyes. Both of them had complex eyes. "As parents, you owe Chen too much..." Xiao Jing stepped forward. "If you are still willing to repay, please try to accept Mrs. Shao..." there was a trace of complexity in his voice. "Really, that woman is worth your heart." After that, Xiao Jing stared at Cen Lanxi deeply, and then followed Gu Beichen with big steps. When Gu Beichen arrived at the emperor, almost everyone was talking about the case Even, someone called out the discussion of the combination of the accident cases of Mo Huai and Cen Yulan and today''s evidence. "Where''s Mo''er?" Gu Beichen went directly to the design department. "Here..." Shen Chu indicated the leisure area of the lower design department. Gu Beichen looked sideways and saw Jian Mo standing in front of the window, looking back... The whole person was quiet and could not bear to break. Everyone in the design department has their eyes on Gu Beichen. No one is not curious and gossip. However, in places with strong ability, their strength often proves their position. Jane Mo''s ability is directly proportional to her respect. Because of this, people in the design department hardly regard her as the president''s wife, but one of them But in the end, at today''s court session, no one really doesn''t guess the result. What situation will Gu Beichen and Jian Mo have. Gu Beichen walks to the leisure area Because of the glass barrier, Jian Mo didn''t hear Gu Beichen''s question and didn''t know he was coming. Until... He pushed open the glass door of the leisure area. Jane Mo turned and looked at him vaguely. Their eyes are opposite in the air. At that moment, they don''t need any words Gu Beichen walked towards Jian Mo step by step. The sun shone in from the dark glass window and hit her gently, making people feel warm. "Fortunately," said Jane Mo, with a slightly sour nose, "I have always firmly loved you and never thought of giving up or leaving... Even in the face of those obstacles that I thought I couldn''t cross." "Mo''er, thank you for your trust..." Gu Beichen said in a low voice, "so that I can sort out everything without hesitation." Tears fell inadvertently, but Jane Mo smiled at the corners of her mouth. "Because it''s you..." Jane Mo sniffed. "Because it''s you, I didn''t want to shrink back..." Gu Beichen suddenly touched his hand and fished Jian mo. Jun''s face was already attached. Regardless of the sight of everyone in the design department, he kissed Jian Mo''s lips What else can make him more excited than "because it''s you, so I didn''t want to shrink back"? His Mo''er, it is his greatest happiness to fall in love with you in this life Chapter 890 Jian Mo subconsciously dragged Gu Beichen''s clothes, slightly padded his toes, forgot the occasion, and even forgot everything and kissed him together. It seems that at this moment, in each other''s world, there is only each other and no others. The whole design department forgot the reaction, but quietly looked at the two people who kissed each other, and everyone''s mind was turning. Some people have red eyes, some people sigh and witness such beautiful feelings, and some people envy However, everyone has a cognition. That is, Jane Mo deserves Gu Beichen''s love. No one can still love unswervingly under such circumstances. What kind of feelings can you put aside everything and go hand in hand with the people you love? "Xiaoran, I can''t..." Xiang night''s voice has been muttering, his nose is more sour and his eyes are red, but in an instant, it is filled with moving tears, "what should I do? I think I really want to find someone to fall in love." "Me too..." Mu Xiaoran sniffed, "but I''m a little scared at the thought of sister Mo and President Gu working so hard." The two girls looked at each other with red eyes and couldn''t help laughing again. Yes, if you also face such hard love, how many people can go on like this? Xiangwan and mu Xiaoran don''t know, but they think they won''t be as strong as sister mo. Shen Chu sighed secretly, took back his sight on Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, turned around and went back to the design room. Sometimes, looking back at life, it turns out that it is so full of holes under beauty Only those who love money unswervingly can get the same return? If at the beginning, she loved Beichen enough and could not give herself the opportunity to escape with various reasons, could she also gain such feelings? Shen Chu was suddenly a little confused. She stood in front of the window and looked at the rows of high-rise buildings. A touch of self mockery overflowed from the corners of her mouth. Whether Gu Beichen or Mo Shaochen, she doesn''t seem to have loved... Before, she only loved herself. Jane Mo, although your life is rugged, you have harvested the most beautiful scenery of life with your strength... I sincerely wish you happiness. Because all this is worth what you get! ¡­¡­ "Don''t go to work, okay?" Gu Beichen let go of Jian Mo and asked in a dull voice. Jian Mo was kissed by Gu Beichen. She was a little angry, fanning her eyes and confused. "Mo''er, I''m very happy..." Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a faint smile, "I just want to walk with you." "Good!" Jane answered. There is no work and busyness that can''t be put down, but there are always people who can''t be put down He wants her to accompany him, so she will accompany him! Gu Beichen pulled Jian Mo''s hand out of the leisure area, and even ignored everyone''s attention, but left with Jian mo. "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing had great eyesight and went to get Jian Mo''s bag. "You can handle the company''s affairs." Gu Beichen put down a word and already pulled Jian Mo into the elevator. Xiao Jing sighed helplessly, "who is the hardest thing for the boss to fall in love?" He shook his head. "It can only be me!" "Xiao tezhu," Xiang night suddenly raised his eyebrow, "do you want me to give you some dog food?" "..." Xiao Jing pulled down the corner of his mouth, looked at Xiang night and said, "leave it to yourself!" That night Xiang wrinkled his nose and hummed. Ignoring Xiao Jing, he just took mu Xiaoran and said, "Xiaoran, what should I do... Sister Mo is absent from work, and I really want to find someone to walk." "Why not..." Mu Xiaoran raised his eyebrows and smiled at Xiang night. He went to get his bag one after another, and the stabbing ones were also absent from work! ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen drove. Jian Mo sat next to him, smiling all the time, "where are we going?" "Just walk around..." Gu Beichen replied. Jane Mo Chuo smiled, "Mr Gu, just walk... Just drive?" Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, didn''t say anything, but continued to drive. Jane Mo didn''t ask. Anyway, if the man was sullen, she couldn''t ask why. Just thinking, Jane Mo''s cell phone rang. Jian Mo saw that it was j and picked it up, "huh?" "Where are you?" "In the car," Jane Mo looked around, "well, the destination is not clear." "With Gu Beichen?" There''s something strange in J''s voice. "Yes." Jane Mo answered with a smile. J kicked his foot. "I came to the emperor to have dinner with you..." he glanced. "You''re good. I''m gone." "You go to the staff restaurant yourself," said Jane Mo, with joy in her voice. "Well, maybe you have to solve it yourself at night." As soon as J heard this, he was immediately dissatisfied. However, he also knew that he could not change anything. Without saying anything, he hung up the phone. "J seems angry..." Jane Mo shrugged. Gu beichenkong took his hand and gently rubbed Jian Mo''s hand, "turn around and coax me." Jane morhu smiled and trusted Gu Beichen''s means of coaxing the children now. The car shuttled through the streets of Los Angeles and passed the display screen, which basically reported the court report on the case of Jian Zhanfeng''s falling from a building. Gu Beichen stopped at a place and said, "wait for me..." he got off the bus. Jian Mo looked around and found that the place where Gu Beichen parked was snack street. Suddenly remembered when Gu Beichen chased her when she just came back from London last year Dressed in a handmade suit, he went to the night market to buy her fried rice noodles. There is honey melting in the heart, full of Jane foam, and the whole heart is sweet. After a while, Gu Beichen came back with two bags in his hand, "just eat in the car, huh?" "Yes." Jane Mo answered, "with her husband, it''s the same everywhere..." "Sweet mouth!" Gu Beichen''s generous praise. "It''s necessary..." while Jane Mo answered the voice, she went to pick up and see what Gu Beichen had bought. There are not many things, but there is fried rice noodles. "I just thought you bought fried rice noodles for me last year..." Jian Mo excitedly took out the fried rice noodles and ate it with satisfaction. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo eating deeply, as if what he stuffed into his mouth had become very delicious. After a simple meal, Gu Beichen started the car. Jane Mo didn''t ask where to go. Anyway, as long as Gu Beichen was around, where to go was the same. The car finally stopped at the noisy roadside. It was a subway station. "Remember here?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane nodded, "of course..." An hour of love, her heart, completely fell. "Mo''er, put aside the past..." Gu Beichen suddenly became low and dull. "I want to meet you again... Without any interests or fetters, just simply... Meet in the crowd." Chapter 891 Jane Mo seemed to understand Gu Beichen''s meaning, "are you looking for me?" Gu Beichen shook his head, "no one is looking for anyone..." Jane Mo smiled, "OK!" She didn''t say anything, just got out of the car with her bag. Gu Beichen put down the window and looked at Jian mo. she turned around in time, "ah Chen, I''m waiting for the moment when I meet you..." Then she smiled at Gu Beichen, turned and went directly to the subway station. Since she married Gu Beichen, she rarely felt such a civilian moment. At first, I lived in lanzeyuan. There was basically no way to travel without driving Later, I went to Runze Park, which is only a few minutes'' walk from the company. Jian Mo leaned against the corner of the subway car and looked at the light box signs that crossed rapidly. In her mind, there were bits and pieces of passing and Gu Beichen. No hard work, no pain... Yes, it''s just full of memories. "Arrive ahead..." There was a voice announcing the station in her ear. Jane Mo stood up and walked to the door of the carriage. Someone has recognized Jane mo. while everyone whispered, they looked at her one after another. Jane Mo ignored, or said, such eyes, she has felt too much since she was with Gu Beichen "Miss Jane," someone rubbed over, "can I ask you something?" Jane Mo was a big boy who was childish and didn''t take off, "huh?" "Well, in the college entrance examination this year, I want to choose architectural design, but my father doesn''t want me to choose..." the boy was a little embarrassed. "Because you study architectural design, so I want to ask your advice." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "If you like it, stick to it..." she smiled. "If you hesitate, it means you don''t like it as much as you think." After a pause, "in fact, no matter what we treat, we are the same. Only when we think about it, we will work hard!" In due time, the subway stops and the door opens. "Ask your heart, and you will know whether you need to insist..." Jane Mo left a deep sentence and left the car with a cheerful step. When she stood at the place where Gu Beichen met for the first time again, Jian Mo looked at the familiar but strange environment because of the baptism of years. The corners of her mouth overflowed with laughter and said loudly: "Gu Beichen, thank you... Let me meet you here!" Pedestrians stared one after another. When they saw that it was Jian Mo, they widened their eyes one by one. Even, someone took out their mobile phone and began to shoot. "Is Gu Beichen there?" "See..." "How many meanings does Jane Mo shout here?" "Who knows... But it feels like something''s going to happen." "Look..." "Beautiful balloons... Good day!" Suddenly, I don''t know who shouted, and everyone looked at one place. I saw colorful balloons rising slowly, but in an instant, it was full of the whole line of sight. Jane Mo was also stunned. She looked up at the balloons floating in the air. Before she could react, there was a cry from the crowd. Jian Mo''s subconscious eyes looked forward Gu Beichen came towards her with a bunch of Gobi love wild lilies mixed with blue and white in his hand That kind of feeling, as if through everything, a thousand years. In fact, she didn''t know Gu Beichen would be here. She just wanted to come to the place where she first met "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo subconsciously shouted. "Mo''er, from this moment on," Gu Beichen''s low voice came, showing the spoil of magnetism, "our love starts from the purest and purest..." Seven years ago, they first met here, and fate combined them. Seven years later, they met here again. Since then, they have been together all their lives, and nothing can separate them anymore. The sunshine poured down from them, and the beauty was just like a picture "When did you decorate it?" Asked Jane mo. "Temporary..." Gu Beichen said, "it''s too hasty. I only had time to get some balloons." "But Gobi loves wild lilies. Los Angeles doesn''t have them." Jane Mo glanced at the flowers in her hand. Gu Beichen smiled, "women should be stupid if they are appropriate, so they can be cute..." "Well, I''ll improve next time." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "The balloon is indeed arranged temporarily..." Gu Beichen said with a smile, "because it''s a temporary decision to take you out." He paused. "The flowers came by air yesterday and arrived in the morning." "Huh?" Jane was a little surprised. "It was originally intended to be given to you in the morning, but later I thought that it was mixed with too many complex emotions..." Gu Beichen''s voice was always long, "thinking that after the court session, when all the dust is settled, maybe our love can return to purity." Gu Beichen is not a good lover, but every time he talks about love, he always makes people sweet to the heart. Everyone wants to listen to different love words. Jane Mo just hopes that he has put his mind on her "It seems that we are going to make headlines again." Jane Mo said jokingly. "Aren''t you the headline I''ve been making?" Gu Beichen asked. Jian Mo was stunned, then came forward and circled Gu Beichen''s arm, ignored the crowd who were shooting and talking about them, and walked towards the front "Husband..." Jian Mo shouted in a greasy voice. Gu Beichen smiled at his thin lips, "huh?" "It''s all right. I just want to call you." Gu Beichen smiled at the corner of his spoiled mouth, "do you think it''s great to marry me?" "..." Jane Mo glanced. "I still think it''s great for you to marry me!" "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered, "I think so, too." Jane Mo grinned. It was the happiest day for her since Xiaoyan left. ¡­¡­ New York, USA. Just after midnight in New York, Shi Shaoqin looked at the news in Los Angeles, his arm casually supported on the armrest, the back of his hand dragging his chin The moonlight was just right, and it came in from the window. There were a little stars shining in the ink sky, showing ease. "I can guess that everything is Gu muhuai''s game," Shi Shaoqin said with a smile. "Beichen, sure enough, I didn''t read you wrong from the beginning." At the same time, Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly But in the past so many years, we can find out in such a short time and have so many favorable evidence I''m afraid even he can''t do it. There is no other place in the world that can control the news like this except XK What conditions did Beichen agree to XK? Shi Shaoqin''s slightly narrowed eyes suddenly opened, revealing a trace of far-reaching light. At the right time, there was a hurried sound of footsteps outside. While Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, someone knocked on the door anxiously, and even pushed the door open before he could speak. Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful handsome face showed a trace of coldness. However, Xi Cheng who pushed the door didn''t find it at all, but said excitedly, "Qin Shaoqin, star is awake!" Chapter 892 Shi Shaoqin looked at Xi Cheng''s excited appearance. His beautiful handsome face was as calm as water without any waves. "Qin Shao," Xi Cheng said again with certainty when he saw that Shi Shaoqin didn''t respond. The excitement on his face froze there. "That... Star woke up!" "Awake?" Shi Shaoqin said softly. "Well, wake up..." Xi Cheng nodded, a little dull. Shi Shaoqin still didn''t move, but looked at Xi Cheng. Xi Cheng was a little hairy. He just felt a cool breath rising from his back. It was gloomy. Well... Doesn''t Qin Shao always care about star? Even, Mo Gong hasn''t returned recently and still lives in his drug research institute But what, the reaction is wrong?! "Well, Qin Shao, I mean when I wake up..." The chair was almost lifted up by qin''er and even fell to his feet. Shi Shaoqin walked out with great strides Xi Cheng subconsciously stepped aside. He looked at Shi Shaoqin, who took a huge step, and whispered: "this is the reaction that should be!" Then he hurriedly followed. Shi Shaoqin hurried into the insulation room, but even though he was eager, he still paid attention to disinfection without any carelessness. There was laughter in the room. It was the excited voice of Meno and a nurse. Shi Shaoqin looked in the direction of the inside, and the disinfection action was faster. "Qin Shao..." when Meno saw Shi Shaoqin coming in, the smile on his face squeezed out the canthus. "Star woke up." Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but walked to the incubator The little guy inside looked around curiously with his eyes open. His eyes were bright and dark, which made people feel that even if he couldn''t speak, they were all words. Shi Shaoqin smiled uncontrollably from the corners of his mouth. He watched the little guy curl up his legs and stretch out in the incubator for a while. He looked a little clumsy. However, he pulled a thread that moved his heartstrings, making his mood move with star''s actions. Suddenly Star looked at Shi Shaoqin and grinned. His dark eyes were particularly bright under the soft light. "Star smiled..." Meno exclaimed. "He woke up and looked everywhere. His little face was full of curiosity but very serious. Unexpectedly, he smiled when he saw Qin Shao!" Meiqin''s eyes were filled with the sight of star. But I don''t know whether it''s because of Meno''s words or because star smiles in his clothes. "Ah..." A faint monosyllabic cry came, with a childish smile. Such a sound only came from the exclamation of the baby''s excitement. Meno delivered the baby himself and even saw many babies and children. However, she felt that she had never felt magical at this moment Obviously, Qin Shao has no blood relationship with star. However, there seems to be a great traction between big and small. For example, Qin Shao only smiles at star. And star''s first smile is also left to Qin Shao The insulation room was filled with a warm atmosphere. Even Xi Cheng, who has always been only interested in drugs, was excited. Most of the time, he is harmful to people and rarely saves people. But the moment star opened his eyes, he was almost uncontrollably happy "When can he leave here?" Shi Shaoqin''s long and narrow eyes were full of smiles. Star doesn''t know if he feels Shi Shaoqin''s kindness to him. He keeps kicking his calf and smiling at him. In that way, the soft and cute people will follow. "Watch for another two days," Meno said with a smile. "If there''s no problem, star can leave the incubator and basically return to normal life." After hearing this, Shi Shaoqin''s facial lines softened a bit. Raise your hand and gently slide your slender jade like fingers across star''s "face", which is like telepathy. Star dances and laughs again. "Welcome..." Shi Shaoqin said softly. In the years to come, let you roam With me, you don''t need to worry about anything, just be fearless! In the following years, star did feel Shi Shaoqin''s overbearing love. Sometimes, star even makes fun of Shi Shaoqin and asks him if he has any quirks, such as Well, the whole Mo palace knows that word very well. Only star dares to say it, but Shi Shaoqin can''t help him! ¡­¡­ The midnight in New York is full of sweetness under the warmth. In the afternoon in Los Angeles, it is even more affected by waves of dog abuse honey. When greasy netizens ask for dog food one by one, they want to talk about a shocking love. Because someone took a video and put it on Weibo and Los Angeles forum, but in half an hour, the number of hits, forwarding and replies increased by an alarming number. However, the current heat on the Internet has nothing to do with Gu Beichen and Jian Mo who have just arrived in the cemetery "Come back from Mo palace," Gu Beichen picked up the steps with Jian Mo, "at first, it''s because of your body, then..." he paused, "Mo''er, I''ve always wanted to see my father and mother with you." However, he knew that Mo''er could not face Jane Zhanfeng and Su Mo because of the original building fall. Jane Mo''s eyes are a little red. The man around her doesn''t need to say anything. He knows... It''s a good feeling. Bending over slowly, Jian Mo puts the blue and white Gobi Aiye Lily in front of the tombstones of Jian Zhanfeng and Su mo. "Dad, mom..." Jane Mo''s nose is a little sour, her eyes are slightly red, but the corners of her mouth are smiling, "ah Chen and I have come to see you!" Jane Mozhe the corners of her mouth and didn''t let the sadness under happiness overflow. She just recalled the scene of her "lonely" standing in front of the tombstone when her father and mother left her Everything is over. Hold his hand and she will be happy. Gu Beichen felt Jian Mo''s mind and clenched Jian Mo''s hand tightly. Without extra words, he just stared at her deeply and looked at the tombstone "Dad, mom!" Gu Beichen''s voice was low but firm, "please rest assured to give me Mo''er, and I will take your love for her and go on with her..." Jian Mo glanced at Gu Beichen. The smile at the corners of her mouth spread out and fainted in her eyes that had been dense with water mist. The afternoon sun was warm and hot. Jian Mo and Gu Beichen looked at each other in front of the tombstones of Jian Zhanfeng and Su mo They didn''t say anything, but they knew very well... Nothing could separate them in this life. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and walked outside the cemetery in the warm sun Without fetters and barriers, they can love more unscrupulously. Just as they turned to pick up the steps and went down, behind the pine tree not far away, a figure slowly turned sideways, looked at their backs, and the bottom of their eyes flashed a sinister breath. "I paved the road for you..." The man''s mind kept echoing Gu mohuai''s words. He looked at the two people who were gradually traveling far away, and his sight became more and more dark Chapter 893 Gu Beichen took Jian Mo all the way to the city Jian Mo was in a good mood. She brushed the microblogs with their videos all the way and looked at the messages See the funny jokes and share them with Gu Beichen. Its name is: afraid of the age generation gap, Gu always has no way to communicate with her in the future. Immediately, President Gu''s face turned black. "Can young people satisfy you in bed? Can they fight with you for a long time? Don''t tell you early? These can only be achieved after years of precipitation..." In a word, the choking Jian Mo only smoked at the corners of her mouth. After scolding "thinking in the lower body", she decided not to talk to Gu Beichen and continued to brush messages. Netizen A: God, even if I''m not at the scene, watching so many balloons take off and Gu Beichen walks to Jianmo with a bouquet of flowers, I can feel full of happiness and doting. Netizen B: special, who can tell me that a ruthless president is so romantic for Mao? Netizen C: there is love in the world of the rich. How can we civilians live? ¡­¡­ There are those who envy, envy and hate. Naturally, there are also those who are jealous. A: to put it bluntly, isn''t it a gimmick? Hum, the story of Jian Zhanfeng''s falling from a building was stormy before. Why didn''t they show their love? Niansuan B: anyway, it''s impossible to cover up that Jian Mo and Gu Beichen are interested in his nature of money... Otherwise, why didn''t they make a high profile before, and now they come out with a high profile? Niansuan C: I think Jane Mo first ignored her father''s death for money, and then pretended to have a face of "I love you, so I trust you". Seriously, it''s the first time I''ve seen such a scheming bitch... No wonder I can turn Chen Shaofan around ¡­¡­ As soon as such remarks came out, there was a war of words between the envious faction and the sour faction on the Internet, and even there was a growing trend. "Husband, not take it seriously," they said, "I am looking for your money..." Jane froth a little bit of micro-blog with no intention of doing so. He also occasionally went to Beichen to make complaints about the car he drove. "No, I''m your little white face..." Gu Beichen said proudly. Jane Mo thought for a while and thought, "yes, I''m the emperor''s largest shareholder!" Gu Beichen tilted his head and looked at the charming Jane foam. The smile on the edge of his thin lips gradually filled the air No one really doesn''t care about gossip, but his Mo''er knows that he won''t let those affect their feelings. In my life, I have one or two confidants, one lover and several children Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was slightly dim, but soon he recovered his calm. He wants to have at least one more child with Mo''er, a child who can grow up with him from beginning to end "Where are we going now?" Jane Mo, look at the time. It''s only more than three o''clock in the afternoon. "Go home!" Gu Beichen answered quickly. Jane Mo tilted her head. "Are you going home now?" "HMM..." Gu Beichen''s voice gradually became a little ambiguous. "I can''t help it." "..." Jane Mo didn''t react for a while. When she did, her face turned slightly red, and she said angrily, "Gu Beichen, do you have sperm on your brain?" "There''s no way," Gu Beichen said with an evil smile. "You said my lower body was thinking. I just thought there all the way, and then I couldn''t help it..." "..." Jane Mo felt that Gu Beichen was abstinent when he was cold, but if the animals got up, you would be speechless for a minute. At first, Jane Mo thought Gu Beichen was just joking, but when she really returned to the halfway house, she wanted to kick him directly What about the agreed walk? What about the pure little romance? Agreed Well, actually, I didn''t say anything! Jane Mo followed Gu Beichen and thought that she would never sneak into bed with him later. Jane Mo thought, but her legs and feet followed Gu Beichen all the way to the villa In fact, since the exposure of the video of the fall that year, both Gu Beichen and Jian Mo seem to be busy. Although they basically sleep together at night, there is no in-depth communication together. Now things have been solved. Jian Mo said that she didn''t want to have in-depth communication with Gu Beichen at all. That''s hypocrisy. However, when people stepped into the villa, Jane Mo immediately felt a dignified atmosphere. Subconsciously, she looked in the direction of the living room... Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi both looked at them and stood up. Jane Mo was stunned at first, and then became flustered. Although the truth is clear, Jian Mo is not ready to see Cen Lanxi... What''s more, there was friction last year. Gu Beichen obviously felt Jian Mo''s uneasiness. He took her hand and gently clenched it. His deep vision gave her stability. Jane morhu raised her lower lip and walked forward with Gu Beichen. "Dad," she paused and continued to shout, "Mom..." Gu Moyuan answered. Cen Lanxi looked at Jian Mo with a complicated look. Finally, he answered. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Aunt LAN brought tea and juice at the right time. "Well, let''s come here..." Gu Moyuan broke the somewhat dignified stalemate and opened his mouth after aunt LAN withdrew. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but looked at Cen Lanxi indifferently. The atmosphere gradually became treacherous and no one spoke. Jane Mo is a little confused because she doesn''t know what will happen or what will happen. Gu Moyuan looked at Cen Lanxi a little dignified, and saw that she had been staring at Jian Mo and didn''t speak. His wife has been arrogant like a peacock all her life, apologizing to his daughter-in-law, but she still doesn''t recognize it... He knows it''s a little difficult. But Beichen Gu Moyuan felt completely guilty and sighed, "Xiaomo, Lanxi and I came here..." "Sorry!" CEN Lanxi suddenly spoke and interrupted Gu Moyuan. Everyone''s eyes fell on Cen Lanxi. Gu Moyuan was surprised, Gu Beichen was deep, and Jian Mo was at a loss. As if, no one thought Cen Lanxi would say sorry. Even if she comes "In fact, it''s not difficult to say sorry..." Cen Lanxi seemed to relax after saying ''sorry''. "Jian Mo, I have to say, you''re still not satisfied with you." Jane murmured at the corners of her mouth and said nothing. "But it doesn''t seem to matter whether I''m satisfied or not, because Beichen has done so much for you. I don''t think my mother has anything to object to..." Cen Lanxi''s voice is still arrogant, "of course, it''s useless for me to object." "Beichen said that you are the one he deserves to love, and Xiao Jing said the same." CEN Lanxi''s voice was suddenly a little sour. "You can firmly face the things that happened before with Beichen. In fact, from this point of view, as a mother, I should thank you." Speaking of this, cen Lanxi was suddenly weak and couldn''t stand a little memory That day, Beichen talked about his kidnapping like that. She really owed the son too much. "Don''t say that..." Jane Mo lowered her eyes slightly. "I can be so firm because ah Chen is worth it." A simple sentence contains too much. Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at Cen Lanxi calmly. "I''m sorry for my father and mother, because this is what you should say..." she looked at Gu Beichen, "but I don''t need it." She looked at Cen Lanxi again, "whether it''s sorry or thank you... You gave me Gu Beichen, didn''t you?" Chapter 894 A Gu Beichen, to Jian Molai... No matter how many apologies and thanks, they become insignificant. Jane Mo is very greedy. When she gets a love, she wants to hold it firmly However, she is a very satisfied person. If she gets it, she won''t expect too much In this world, her greatest wealth is a man named Gu Beichen, isn''t it? Thinking, Jian Mo glanced at Gu Beichen At the right time, he was also looking at it. They looked at each other, and everything was silent. Gu Moyuan looked at his son, his nose was a little sour, and there was something stuck in his throat. He still remembers that when he was a child, the sunshine in Beichen seemed to be heating at any time. People around him, both men and women, liked to follow, as if they had gravity. Later, after being kidnapped, it seemed that except Yunze and Nanfang, he was basically alienated from the people around him Whether it was them who were not very close, or Shaochen, he always showed a faint sense of alienation. I didn''t understand until that day, he just talked about the past The three dark months and the three months that changed Beichen are in vain to be a father. Looking at Beichen, he can still emit the vibrant light of the past. Gu Moyuan''s eyes are wet If it weren''t for Jian Mo, perhaps, as Beichen said, after fighting with the second son, he would have no faith to live? "Anyway," Cen Lanxi sighed heavily, "I still want to say thank you." Her pride seemed to fade in an instant, "I''ve been neglecting to take care of Beichen, and then so many things happened, and I''m not in good health..." Gu Moyuan gently took his wife''s shoulder and tried to comfort her. "Thank you for letting Beichen live a hopeful life..." Cen Lanxi said, and his eyes suddenly turned red. "No matter what I think of you, Jian Mo, I have to say that you have reborn Beichen. I thank you from the heart." Jane moo smiled at the corners of her mouth and didn''t refuse Cen Lanxi''s thanks again. If she is more comfortable because she said "thank you". After all, this person is ah Chen''s mother and grandma with milk bag... Even if there is no harmony between her mother-in-law and daughter-in-law, she doesn''t want ah Chen to be alienated from her parents because of her. She has no father and mother. No one knows better than her that if her parents can grow old healthily, it is better than anything. Aunt LAN stood at the door of the kitchen with red eyes. She watched Chen Shao grow up. There were so many ups and downs. Now she can be accompanied by an atmospheric woman like Mrs. Shao. The old man and the old lady know under the spring. I don''t know how happy they are! CEN Lanxi and Gu Moyuan left. They have experienced ups and downs all their lives and experienced so many things. They are not as shocked as Gu Beichen''s truth in those three months. Gu Moyuan was weak all his life and failed to fulfill the responsibility of a father. CEN Lanxi was strong and domineering all her life, but she didn''t take care of her mother Now, what right do they have to intervene in their son''s happiness and life? Gu Beichen sent the second old man away. Jian Mo stood in front of the French window. The slanting sunlight projected onto her from the window, warm It''s not just the body, it''s the heart. How beautiful All the dust has settled. Even if she can''t get the blessing of ah Chen''s parents, she won''t be opposed, will she? "Xiao Jie is back. Let''s have dinner together?" CEN Lanxi endured and said, "Beichen, mom will try to accept Jian Mo from her heart." "OK." Gu Beichen answered softly. CEN Lanxi''s nose was sour again and his mouth moved several times, but he didn''t say anything. "Let''s go..." Gu Moyuan sighed, stared deeply at his son and got on the car with Cen Lanxi. Gu Beichen waited until Gu Moyuan and their car left the gate before turning back to the villa. When the talent arrived at the door, the mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. Take it out and see that it''s Li Yunze. Gu Beichen enters the house and picks it up and puts it in his ear, "huh?" "Gu Beichen," an anxious voice came over the phone, choking helplessly, "Li Yunze''s hand is hurt, he doesn''t go to the hospital..." Words just fall, why rather has been uncontrollably crying. Gu Beichen immediately stopped and asked with a frown: "where are you?" Are you kidding? How valuable is Yunze''s hand? If he''s injured and doesn''t go to the hospital, why is he crazy?! He Yining cried and reported the address. Gu Beichen said in a deep voice, "I''ll go right away..." "What''s the matter?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s dignified face and frowned. "Yunze''s hand is hurt..." Gu Beichen shook his head. "I don''t know what the situation is. Why are you in a bad mood when you go with me." "Yes!" Jane Mo quickly answered, changed her shoes, and hurried to the car with Gu Beichen. J just came back. Just when he wanted to talk, he saw two people driving the car, completely ignoring him and leaving J grinned. "Is there a mistake... You''re reconciled, and no one cares about me! Hum!" "I care about you..." aunt LAN didn''t know what had happened, but she didn''t think much about Gu Beichen and Jian mo. she just looked at J and said with a smile, "how about having dumplings for dinner?" J wanted to have the backbone to refuse and let aunt LAN understand that he was angry at the moment. Unfortunately, I was so spineless in front of the dumplings... Finally, I answered stiffly. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen drove a little fast, and Jian Mo was also very dignified. In fact, she didn''t have much contact with he Yining. However, the woman had her own pride. Ah Chen could say that she was unstable. I''m afraid she was light. The car drove all the way to the suburbs. From a distance, Li Yunze''s car was parked on the side of the road. They didn''t know what to argue about. Why Ning couldn''t help crying. "Li Yunze, do you want me to compensate you for my hand..." Just as Gu Beichen and Jian Mo got off the bus, why should Ning scream sharply at Li Yunze. Before they could ask what had happened, they saw that Li Yunze''s left hand was red with fresh blood... They didn''t know what the wound looked like. Anyway, it looked like seeping people. "Are you crazy?" Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze''s face and leaned fearlessly against the car. His cold, carved face was cold. "If this is your way to deal with women, I really think highly of you." Then he looked at Jian Mo, "I''ll take Yunze to the hospital..." "I''ll accompany Yining." Jane Mo said quickly. "Waiting for me to drag you away?" Gu Beichen''s voice was indisputable. Li Yunze sneered at he Yining, "he Yining, I''ve never seen such a vicious woman like you..." Then he turned coldly and got on Gu Beichen''s car. Chapter 895 Why should I laugh at myself at the corners of my mouth? When I deviated from my face, my tears fell down as hard as a broken line. Gu Beichen stared deeply at why Yining, started the car and took the lead in leaving the suburbs. Jane Mo didn''t say anything, just came forward and hugged he Yining. The stronger a woman is, sometimes the more scars she doesn''t want others to see. He Yining doesn''t know how long he cried. Silent, tears are the same as how they can''t flow clean. Jane Mo kept holding her until the sunset was about to disappear on the horizon. Why Ning''s mood was a little controlled. "Thank you..." why would you rather suck your nose and say with red and swollen eyes, "today''s day will delay you and Chen Shao." Jane Mo shook her head and said it didn''t matter. "Do you want to go to the hospital?" "No..." he Yining pulled the corners of his mouth with self mockery. "It''s a big deal. He can''t hold the scalpel in his hand. I''ll compensate him!" Jane Mo frowned because her feelings had been rough. However, in the end, she and Gu Beichen were firm with each other. It seemed that it was not so difficult along the way. But Li Yunze and he Yining Jane Mo didn''t ask much, just motioned why she would rather get on the bus, "where to go, I''ll see you off first." "You send me back to Yashu hospital, and I have to be on duty at night..." why did Ning zhe lower the corner of his mouth and try to suppress the surging sadness in his heart. "OK..." Jane Mo answered, started the car and sent why Ning back to Yashu hospital. She could see why Ning was worried about Li Yunze''s hand, but "Jane mo." "Huh?" Jane Mo glanced at why he Ning. "He..." why would you rather bite your teeth and say, "can you tell me after you''ve seen it?" "OK." Jane Mo answered and saw why Ning''s mind, "I won''t let Yunze know." "Thank you..." Jane Mo smiled and shook her head. Along the way, he Yining didn''t speak again, but looked at the passing scenery outside the window. From beginning to end, her persistence was a mistake. But she knew it was a mistake. She knew that Li Yunze hated her, but she was mean Why did Ning pull down the corner of his mouth and close his eyes. Jane Mo didn''t disturb he Yining. She just drove quietly all the way When she arrived at Yashu hospital, Jian Mo subconsciously looked at the sign. The emotions remembered by her father and mother rushed up in an instant. "Thank you!" Jane Mo took back her thoughts. "If you need to, you can call me... Well, anyway, leaving Li Yunze, we are friends, and Yihe milk bag is also friends!" He Yining nodded. Without any extra courtesy, he opened the door and got out of the car. Jian Mo looked at why Ning''s astringent back, sighed gently, and drove to Huakang hospital. When she passed, Li Yunze''s wound had been treated. Fortunately, she didn''t hurt her muscles and bones, but it was basically impossible to take the scalpel flexibly within a month or two. Jane Mo sent a short breath to why Ning. Yu Guang caught a glimpse of Li Yunze''s mouth moving back and forth several times, but he just didn''t speak. He didn''t ask, and Jane Mo didn''t intend to say Jane Mo thought about it. If you want to ask and get angry, don''t ask. I''ll suffocate you! Gu Beichen slightly raised his eyebrows and eyes. He could understand what Jane Mo was thinking at a glance He didn''t expose it. After all, Yunze and he Yining''s affairs have had ups and downs from small to large, and they have to solve them. "You go back!" Li Yunze suddenly opened his mouth and his voice was a little dull. Jane Mo sneered. The man was uncomfortable. He was more annoying than a woman. Mingming wants to ask about he Yining, but now he hates that she and ah Chen are here. He is afraid he can''t help asking and simply drives away "Anyway, it''s your own territory," Jian Mo said before Gu Beichen said, "well, ah Chen and I shouldn''t have to worry about it." With that, she came forward and circled Gu Beichen''s arm, "you have a good rest, let''s go..." "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth, stared at the two people really going out, and said angrily, "Hey, I haven''t eaten yet." "You''re in a bad mood and you probably can''t eat." Gu Beichen spoke faintly and stood completely on the line of his wife. Li Yunze kept moving back and forth at the corners of his mouth and bit his teeth, "you''re cruel!" Gu Beichen picked his eyebrows and left the hospital with Jian Mo indifferently, completely ignoring Li Yunze''s lump in his throat and holding his face. "Really don''t care about him?" Jane Mo is a little impatient. Gu Beichen chuckled, "you said, can you be hungry in his own territory?" He started the car. "Besides, he was only injured in his left hand, and there was nothing wrong with his legs, feet and right hand." "Ah Chen, what''s the matter with them?" Asked Jane mo. Why can Ning give birth to Li Yunze''s child? She must love Yunze "Childhood gratitude and resentment." Gu Beichen sighed, "why would you rather chase Yunze in the past? I used a lot of tricks... Men are sometimes very strange. The more they stick, the more annoying they get." Jane Mo frowned and looked at Gu Beichen. "What do you mean... I''ll be indifferent to you in the future?" "..." Gu Beichen frowned and said calmly, "I''m not an ordinary man. I like to be stuck by women." "Oh, so..." Jane Mo smiled falsely and said clearly, "no wonder you have rich experience, many tricks and can fight a long war..." "..." Gu Beichen suddenly had a headache. "Mr. Gu, I found that I was a little happy and lost my mind today," Jane Mo said suddenly and seriously. "I didn''t think about what you said when I came out of the cemetery. Now you remind me!" Gu Beichen decided to drive carefully. Jane Mo didn''t intend to let go, "come on, how many women have you practiced with, and how many tricks can you practice in practice and last?" She hummed, "anyway, I''ve sorted out so many things today, and I don''t mind one more!" "I''ve really practiced and practiced in actual combat..." Gu Beichen stopped at the red and green intersection, turned his head and said with a smile of evil charm at the corners of his mouth, "but it''s all on you." "When you''re with me, you''re obviously great!" Jane Mo gnashed her teeth. Gu Beichen smiled, leaned over slightly, and said in an ambiguous voice, "no way, that''s because your body is too attractive. I can''t teach myself..." as he said, he became more and more depressed. "Besides, I''m strong. You seduced me to exercise!" Jian Mo pushed Gu Beichen away and felt that this guy was too shameless However, at the thought that there was only each other, Jane Mo said in her heart that she was not sweet. It was all a lie. The green light came on at the right time, and Gu Beichen drove forward. "Wait, let''s have something to eat." "Oh..." Jane Mo didn''t care. Gu Beichen said with deep meaning: "leave some time to go back and study more..." Poof! Jian Mo was speechless and choked. The man was really thinking with his lower body today Car, cross the intersection. Los Angeles has just begun to shine, and the Los Angeles evening news is playing on the big screen of the mall. For today, of course, the biggest event is the court case this morning. The host calmly broadcast the gratitude and resentment of the rich and powerful. Finally, the news was fixed on the figure taken away by the prison guard after Gu mohuai''s judgment. On the screen, Gu mohuai slightly tilted his head and his sight fell out, just in the direction of Gu Beichen and Cen Lanxi. I saw his face was cold and his eyes showed a heavy and fierce breath, but... There was a meaningful smile on the corner of his mouth. That kind of smile shows the abnormal madness of losing both sides Chapter 896 Jane Mo felt that she knew Gu Beichen very well, but she didn''t. For example, from this afternoon to evening, her brain capacity can''t keep up. You think he is using ambiguous means to disturb your normal thinking. Finally, he just wants you to ease your tension and have a deep communication with his parents. And you think what he said about studying a little tricks is actually a joke. When he will give you some romantic means in the evening In particular, he really went home to study the so-called "little bit" pattern. Well, exercise begins Up and down, left and right, front and back Not enough? Once more! "Husband..." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and begged for mercy without tears. "Please let go..." This man must be crazy today. His gun is full. He can''t empty the rhythm. "I just prove that I really have a lot of tricks on you..." Gu Beichen looked innocent, and his voice was low and ambiguous, showing a magnetic muteness. "Well, by the way, I just have lasting power on you." "How can there be a stingy man like you in this world?" Jane Mo said angrily. Gu Beichen snorted, ignored Jian Mo and continued to tell her that he had many tricks and strong endurance because of her... Other women, he didn''t respond. Jian Mo and Gu Beichen are angry, and no one will step back. But Gu Beichen and Jian Mo have been married for so many years. Although they have been separated for more than four years, he knows clearly the sensitivity of Jian mo. Under such circumstances, it is impossible for Jane Mo to come down without defeat. "Sobbing..." Jian Mo began to hum, "husband, you are the best, husband, you have the most tricks... Husband, your endurance is the strongest. But I can''t..." Jian Mo is really dead, exhausted by Gu Beichen''s tossing, "I know I have a strong temptation to my husband, but can we let go today and continue to study tomorrow?" "OK..." Gu Beichen promised very simply, "then we''ll continue to study tomorrow." Gu Beichen said, quickly for a few times, and explained the explosive force that he couldn''t help. The night was hazy and intoxicated, and Jian Mo was paralyzed. During the whole journey, she enjoyed Gu Beichen''s bath and massage. Anyway, she didn''t care at the moment. If he had the ability to have evil thoughts again, she didn''t have the energy to deal with it, so he changed his manual gear. "Ah Chen, I love you..." Jane Mo nestled in Gu Beichen''s arms and couldn''t open her eyes, "good night." "Good night!" Gu Beichen looked at the little woman curled up in his arms and kissed her at the top of her hair, "love you!" Night, because it is deep, the world is quiet. When the morning sun is languidly waving in the corner of Los Angeles, it is rare that Jian Mo doesn''t wake up under the biological clock on the new day. One is that Gu Beichen was too tired last night. The other is that she has never slept as firmly as last night since she left Xiaoyan. "Good morning, husband..." Jane Mo said in a muffled voice, and her eyes were too tired to open. "Good morning, love!" Gu Beichen''s voice is full of laziness under the bleary, and the magnetism makes people listen to the rhythm of pregnancy every minute. Jane Mo opened her eyes, "lover?" "Well, my love!" Gu Beichen kissed at the corner of her mouth, "why don''t we... Don''t we go to work today?" Said, already pressed Jane foam. Jane Mo rolled her eyes and felt the hot thing. "I''m not feeling well..." she hummed, "you didn''t control yourself last night." "Alas..." Gu Beichen leaned over and kissed Jian Mo''s neck. "I''ll comfort myself. How can I be willing?" Jane Mo grinned, "husband, I''ll wash first and comfort yourself." With that, she pushed Gu Beichen away "ruthlessly", and then, enchanting, completely regardless of her red fruit appearance, she walked to the bathroom in front of Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen couldn''t laugh or cry, "a woman with a heavy heart of revenge!" Jane Mo turned back and winked like silk. "It''s just right for you, a careful man... Well, it''s perfect!" Then she gave Gu Beichen an appropriate wink, and then turned around and entered the bathroom. ¡­¡­ California, USA. Li Xiaoyue is reading an original book in her hand. In the huge score distribution hall, there are many people waiting for the CA bar test results. Some people pretend to be calm, some people pace back and forth because they are nervous, and others talk about Xiaofeng to resolve their tension and develop interpersonal relationships Of course, there are also people who, like Li Xiaoyue, are calmly waiting for the results. The weather in California is not very good today. It''s raining. It''s not big and hazy. Li Xiaoyue''s eyes are a little tired from reading. He looks up and looks out of the window at the drizzle Somehow, she suddenly remembered that not long after the abortion, niu''er found that she fell in love with Gu Beichen. However, she felt uncomfortable because Shen Chu came back and needed to move. They went to drink. She danced her own Tango in the drizzle in Los Angeles square. Li Xiaoyue smiled, but there was a trace of expectation in the bottom of his eyes "Girl, I miss you so much!" Li Xiaoyue whispered. For half a year, she dared not contact anyone in Los Angeles, nor did she dare to see any news there. Her time is used to study and review constantly, and then get the CA bar. Rebirth is given by Gu Beichen, but life needs to work hard and manage. Momo is working hard in her direction. We are girlfriends from childhood to adulthood. She wants to go forward on a par with her Li Xiaoyue took out her mobile phone, photographed the rain winding down the window and sent her first message in the circle of friends from going abroad. "There has never been peace, as if waiting for life is not life, but life is waiting for me... I don''t need a gorgeous turn, but I will stand on my own stage with confidence and be proud of every step next!" After sending, Li Xiaoyue looked at the messages of many people in wechat, but she didn''t look at any of them and allowed those numbers to be superimposed in the past six months. Not afraid to face, just afraid that you are not strong enough "The examiner came out..." Suddenly, someone exclaimed, and everyone hurried to sit down in their own position. Li Xiaoyue took back her sight, pressed out her mobile phone and looked at the examiner who looked very energetic with his grades in front. His hair and beard were white. After an opening speech, the examiner announced the list of those who passed the CA bar exam with a smile. With the excitement and tension passing through, Li Xiaoyue''s calm from beginning to end almost makes people feel that she doesn''t care at all. The examiner looked at the last name, then looked at Li Xiaoyue and said with a smile, "the last place, Li Xiaoyue!" Li Xiaoyue''s mouth gradually overflowed with a smile, which was not only relieved, but also firm self-confidence. "Congratulations..." the examiner looked at the oriental girl in front of him with appreciation. Although there are some people who get the CA bar license in half a year, there are not many... He almost witnessed the girl''s efforts. "Thank you!" Li Xiaoyue smiled at the corners of his mouth. It was the most beautiful smile under the condition of self-confidence, firmness and strength. Chapter 897 "Tut Tut, sister Mo, why do you have dark circles under your eyes today?" Xiang night looked at Jian Mo with a thief''s face, "it''s excessive bathing!" "..." Jane Mo has an impulse to end the evening directly with a drawing pen. "It''s from the little girl''s house. There''s nothing to hide." "Sister Mo, I''m not young..." Xiang night said with a grin. "When you were my age, little Zhengtai had been born for two years." Jian Mo was stunned, then looked at Xiang night calmly and said, "if you don''t remind me, I''ve forgotten... It seems that I''m only older. You''re less than two years old. However, I have a husband and children now, and you... Don''t even have a man!" With a "puff" sound, mu Xiaoran, who had just sent in the drawing tools, immediately laughed out of no image. Xiangwan''s face immediately collapsed, "sister Mo, can you have a good chat?" "It''s you who make fun of sister Mo first," Mu Xiaoran didn''t have any sympathy. "You don''t think about it. Sister Mo is practiced by President Gu every day. It''s not physical, but also the degree of IQ and abdominal darkness." "..." Jane Mo pulled at the corners of her mouth, "Xiaoran, you are so serious that you make fun of us both at the same time. I think you have to make friends." Suddenly, three people in the drawing room laughed. However, the laughter of the three people formed a strong contrast with Shen Chu, who has rarely been late since he went to work in the emperor. "Eh, sister Chu, why are you in bad spirits?" Xiang night looked at Shen Chu with sharp eyes, and his face was a little gloomy. "Didn''t sleep well..." As soon as I heard it, I immediately rubbed it over, "sister er Mo was over indulgent last night, and you didn''t sleep well..." "Empty, lonely and cold!" Shen Chu answered like a stream. As soon as Xiang Wanyi heard this, he immediately smiled, "we are from one country... All single dogs!" Shen Chu was in a state of bewilderment. "Mo Mo and I are going to study the frame diagram of the building. What should we do?" Hearing that they were going to work, Xiang night and mu Xiaoran restrained their joking thoughts and went out of the drawing room to their temporary office area. "What happened?" Jian Mo feels that Shen Chu is not looking for her to talk about work. Shen Chu sat down and looked at the frame drawing drawn by Jian Mo, with his arm on the table and his left cheek in his palm. "Last night, ER and Jinxi went to drink, and then woke up in the hotel in the morning." "..." Jane Mo first digested the content and then asked, "did a man hook up with you or did you hook up with a man?" "Forget..." Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo and didn''t know why. She said it with ease. The feeling is that you are not afraid of being laughed at or betrayed by Jane mo. Jane Mo drooped her eyes and digested it again. Then she frowned slightly and asked, "is it sunny all night? Or... Know?" "Have you met once?" Shen Chu was a little anxious. "In fact, it''s just a temporary dance partner at the open-air ball in Los Angeles Square during the Chinese New Year..." Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu as if she was a little collapsed and took her hand. "I''ll ask you, do you reject that...?" After all, Shen Chu and Xiao Yue have almost the same experience. Shen Chu was stunned. He looked at Jian Mo and thought for a while before shaking his head. "It doesn''t seem to be so exclusive, but... When he woke up, he felt very ridiculous." Jane Mo smiled. "Shen Chu, in fact, there is only sex left between men and women in addition to talking about love..." she raised her eyebrows. "If you don''t reject it, you should release it. Who has no rules, you can only ask for guns for men, not for women..." "..." Shen Chu twitched at the corners of his mouth and immediately shouted dirty words, "shit! Jane Mo, you are so vulgar. Does your Gu always know?" "Know?!" Jian Mo raised her eyebrows. "He''s still my little white face..." she looked proud. "Besides, we seduced each other from marriage to good gun friends, and then entered the normal in-depth communication between husband and wife." "..." Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo with some unbearable, "sometimes I can understand why Beichen chose you, but sometimes, I really don''t understand." Jane Mo shrugged. "I don''t understand. It''s because your life circle is too pretend!" "Can you stop talking so pointedly?" Shen Chu suddenly vented his anger, "Jian Mo, I''m actually afraid that I will subconsciously degenerate. Do you understand?" "Yes!" Jane nodded. "But women are different from men, especially in that regard." She lay back in the chair, "Shen Chu, you tangle because you find that your body has feelings for the man last night, but you can''t see clearly. Why!" Shen Chu wanted to refute, but when he reached his mouth, he swallowed it back. Jane Mo is right. After Li Jinxi was dragged away by Chen Yu last night, she met the man alone and finally went to open a room together drunk But if she really resisted, she couldn''t have been hanging out with that man all night. Is he willing to degenerate, but he really didn''t fall into the vortex of tenderness possessed by that man? "Woman, think about it..." Jane Mo smiled and said, "but if you want to think about it, don''t forget to work out the framework map today, and director Shang will have a meeting tomorrow." "Inhuman!" Shen Chu scolded, "I''ve learned capitalism from your Gu." Then she snorted and got up and went to another design room. After Shen Chu left, Jian Mo continued to draw After the court session yesterday morning and Gu Beichen''s little romance in the afternoon, the whole city of Los Angeles fell into the world of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, the legends of Los Angeles Time, little by little. In the twinkling of an eye, spring drives away the cold in winter. At the same time, the sunshine is full of spring and haunts people''s sight and breath. "The foundation of the real estate cooperated by emperor and Xiangyu will be laid tomorrow," the host broadcast the morning news. "According to the emperor, the main design of the real estate will be carried out by Jian Mo, the first-class designer of Xiangyu, in cooperation with Shen Chu, the first-class designer of emperor, to create the most humanized and personalized combination of Los Angeles, which is suitable for the publicity of the younger generation..." "Ah Chen, I''ll go directly to Xiangyu later." Jane Mo said while wearing her shoes, "there''s an activity tonight, so you and j solve it yourself in the evening." Gu Beichen looked dissatisfied, "Jane Mo, have you found that you are busier than me recently?" Jane Mo stepped forward and kissed Gu Beichen on the cheek a little perfunctorily. "Good boy, little white face, be obedient..." she smiled, "I''m in a hurry, bye!" "Gu Beichen smiled helplessly. Mingming''s face is full of discontent, but his eyes are full of spoil. Jane went to Michelle''s before she went to work. A month has passed since that court session. According to Michelle''s words: the best treatment is mood! "I don''t think you need to come to me..." Michelle said after a series of tests for Jane mo. "your depression is basically cured. As long as you pay attention to regulation, there''s no problem with the rest." "OK?" Jane Mo asked with a smile. Michelle shrugged. "Actually, you can feel it yourself..." Jane Mo''s smile brightened a little. "Thank you, Michelle!" "You just work hard!" Michelle said with a smile. "Then I''ll go to work first..." Jane Mo said, took her bag and changed her shoes. Michelle didn''t ask Jane Mo to stay either. Just when she was going to open the door, the doorbell rang Michelle opened the door, and outside stood a man delivering express. His hat with the logo of the express company covered half of his face. "Hello, please sign for the express..." Michelle looked up and said hello to Jane Mo while signing. Just as Jian Mo rubbed the courier sideways, he slightly deviated his eyes and looked across Jian Mo coldly Chapter 898 Jian Mo went directly to the underground parking lot. High heels trampled on the ground and made a sound of "pedaling", echoing in the empty parking lot with a strange echo. The sound of "Ding" came again, and another elevator on one side arrived at the underground parking lot. There was a "crash" sound from the elevator door and opened it, but no one came out. The courier stood in the elevator, looking at Jian Mo''s firm back and slightly raised his eyes. His eyes were gloomy, which made people feel a chill. Jane Mo''s footsteps suddenly hesitated a little. She stopped slowly and looked back subconsciously At the right time, the elevator door just closed because no one came in and out. Jane Mo saw nothing except a shadow reflected on the elevator wall in the elevator. Secretly mocked herself, Jane Mo converged her eyes and went to the car. The latest Porsche trot has strong braking and tire grip. Well, in that car accident, Gu Beichen didn''t seem to be very relieved of her... When Xiao Jing picked up the car, he specifically explained that the two configurations should be particularly good. Jane Mo suddenly misses her car with more than 100000 yuan. How good it is. It doesn''t hurt to hit it. "Jingling..." Just as the car drove out of the apartment on the road, the car phone rang. Jane Mo pressed the on button, and Jane Jie''s soft voice came, "Mommy, remember the spring sports meeting on Friday!" "I won''t forget," said Jane Mo with a smile. "Did you remind your father?" "Daddy doesn''t need to remind..." there is a dislike in Jian Jie''s voice, which clearly means that Jian Mo''s brain is hard to use, and Gu Beichen is not on the same level. Jane Mo snorted angrily. It''s not a day or two for her son to dislike his IQ, but she''s still not used to it. Hey, how can she say that she is also a phoenix in a flock of chickens... But how can she become a chicken without halo when there are a flock of Phoenix in her family?! Jian Mo is very depressed, but under the IQ of Gu Beichen and Jian Jie''s father and son, he can only accept his life. With a good mood, Jian Mo went all the way to Xiangyu. Now Xiangyu has a young wife in town, which is a living advertisement Anyone who wants to cooperate with Gu Beichen has no way to come to Xiangyu. The drunken man''s intention is not wine. "Pedal, pedal, pedal..." High heels trample on the smooth floor and send out a sonorous and powerful rhythm. "Jane Mo!" As soon as Luo Xiaojing came in, she angrily walked to Jian Mo''s office. The whole design department was stunned. I didn''t know what had happened. One by one, they moved their eyes with Luo Xiaojing''s footsteps "How do I feel..." Mu Xiaoran grinned. "A bloody storm is about to begin." Mo Xiaoya looked at her, then looked at Xiang Wan''s'' yes'' expression, and frowned slightly, "how did Mo Mo provoke sister Jing?" Mu Xiaoran and Xiang night looked at each other. Before they spoke, they heard Luo Xiaojing''s roar: "Jane Mo, do you dare to dig my mother''s people?" As soon as this was said, the whole design department looked clear "Poof!" Da Xiong couldn''t believe it. "Mo Mo is so brave that he really dug the corner of the boss''s wife! Niu... I have to give 32 compliments!" "What about president Yu?" Qiao Zirong is a little curious. His wife is in the design department. Why isn''t the boss of the wife slave seen? "It''s very simple," Mo Xiaoya made a concluding speech. "He secretly supports Mo Mo to dig deer white. Therefore, at present, Mr. Yu estimates that he is either absconding outside or pretending to be dead!" "Sister Xiaoya, you have the truth..." Mu Xiaoran and Xiang night nodded in agreement at the same time. Everyone is busy talking with Luo Xiaojing in the office, and they can''t make friends with each other. "Jane Mo, you are cruel!" Luo Xiaojing finally gnashed her teeth and left Xiangyu angrily. In that case, everyone is ready to settle accounts with Yu Ziyun "Mo Mo, what did you say at last to make sister Jing angry like that?" Da Xiong asked curiously. Jane Mo shrugged. "I didn''t say anything..." she looked innocent. "Lubai is an intern. I can''t decide where to work after graduation." "..." the corners of their mouths twitched for a while, and they had a cognition one by one. That is, he who is near is red, and he who is near is black. Jian Mo, who is close to Gu Beichen, turns black Well, it rhymes! Jian Mo looked at the way people said to her, "stay away from everything in the future". She said she was a little upset. Didn''t she dig people for the good of the design department? Besides, although she only took a little share of Xiangyu, she will pay dividends at the end of the year. If more talents come over, she can earn more. Later, Gu Beichen knew about it. He worked hard to reclaim his own world in bed and asked discontentedly, "Jian Mo, how come I didn''t care about the emperor''s share dividend so much money?" Every time she mentions this matter, Jane Mo always has to react for a few seconds before she can remember. She is now the emperor''s largest shareholder. Gu Beichen was helpless. He didn''t understand Why did Jane Mo just get his money when he was married by contract. Now the two people are close. Is the money so clear? It means that his wife doesn''t spend his own money. Gu Beichen thinks he works so hard and has no goal Hey, a man who said he was stuffed with heart can only sing conquest in bed to feel that his wife needs him! Jane Mo ignored the design department one by one. It was clear that she was also secretly happy. She had to put the "responsibility" on her and turned back to the office. After the follow-up work of emperor''s new real estate is handled, she will travel with Gu Beichen... Think about it, Jian Mo is very happy. Jane took out her cell phone and put it on the foam. Since taking the CA bar, Li Xiaoyue occasionally sends something in the circle of friends. According to her own words, it is hypocritical. Li Xiaoyue didn''t contact Jian Mo directly, and Jian Mo didn''t contact her either. Because Jian Mo knows how proud Li Xiaoyue is Getting a lawyer''s license again and winning a beautiful lawsuit are the real starting point for her life to restart. "Come on!" Jian Mo looked at her mobile phone, with a faint smile on her mouth. At the same time, she quit wechat and sent a text message to Gu Beichen. Mo''er: husband Gu Beichen was in a meeting. Looking at the two words with a greasy and crooked expression, a shallow smile overflowed from his thin lips. Executives are used to Gu Beichen, who sends text messages to either Jian Mo or Gu Yan, the young master of the family. President Gu: Yes! Huh? Two words, one is a spoiled response, the other is a question, what''s the matter? Jian Mo knew Gu Beichen was busy as soon as she saw him: her husband was busy first and said later. "Take a ten minute break!" After Gu Beichen read the text message, he put down his words indifferently. At the same time, the man had got up and walked to the outside of the conference room. Xiao Jing sighed: Chen Shao, in front of Mrs. Shao, what''s your special integrity and sense of responsibility to the company?! Chapter 899 After Gu Beichen went out, he dialed Jane Mo, "what''s the matter?" "Well, you''re not busy?" Jane was a little surprised. "Busy also needs a proper rest, doesn''t it?" Gu Beichen asked again with a smile in his light voice, "what''s the matter?" "Chen, shall we go to California first?" Jane asked with a smile. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly deep, and the spoiled voice answered, "good." "Don''t ask why?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and looked forward to it. Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and collected the smile from the bottom of his eyes. "The first case that Xiao Yue took over will open next month." Jane Mo immediately smiled as if she had smeared honey on her mouth. "Husband, how hot do you think I love you?" "I''m fine!" Gu Beichen was serious about his shameless words. "Thick skinned..." Jian Mo immediately laughed in the office, and the closed glass door could not be stopped. "I protest," a single dog gnashed his teeth. "I think I should advise president Yu to blacken the glass in our area in Jian Mo''s office." His words were just uttered, and immediately, they were echoed by many people. Gu Beichen listened to Jian Mo''s hearty laughter, and his thin lips couldn''t help overflowing with laughter. That smile spread all over his body in an instant. "Are you sure you won''t take me tonight?" Gu Beichen asked in a low voice. Jane Mo raised her eyebrows, "no!" She has good reasons, "after turning back to fancy dog abuse, I''m afraid I''ll cause public anger." Gu Beichen shook his head helplessly, "well, don''t drink too much wine... Call me when you''re almost finished, and I''ll pick you up, huh?" "OK." Jane Mo didn''t refuse, "well, go and be busy. I''m going to be busy, too." Gu Beichen listened and smiled helplessly, but his voice was more and more spoiled, "OK!" After hanging up, Gu Beichen returned to the conference room, "continue..." "The investment projects in the second quarter have been implemented. Due to the integration of JK, the third phase of the science and Technology Museum over there in Donghai city will be carried out in advance..." the executives quickly entered the state and began to report the work progress. He doesn''t know why Xiao has less thoughts in his way of working for a few days. It is reasonable to say that he generally does not attend such meetings, or senior executives report separately. It was almost noon when the meeting was over. People waited for Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing to leave before they left the meeting room one after another. "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing asked, "go to eat or go to the restaurant?" "Go up and eat." Gu Beichen copied his pocket with one hand and said without stopping. After Xiao Jing pressed the elevator for Gu Beichen, he went to another one and went to the restaurant to cook. After sending the meal to Gu Beichen to the office, Xiao Jingyi''s doubts in the morning were not clarified "What''s the matter? Lost your soul?" Susan looked at Xiao Jing with a box of yogurt in her hand and didn''t open it for a long time. Xiao Jing left the corner of his mouth, "I don''t know why. I always think Chen Shao seems to have something wrong with his work progress these days." "What''s wrong?" Susan didn''t think so. "Anyway, it''s meetings, documents and meals every day... Well, now there''s more to accompany his wife and his son on weekends." "..." Xiao Jing glanced sideways at Susan and felt that she really couldn''t talk about serious things with women, and her brain circuit was single line. "I felt that Chen had to arrange her recent work with less workload." "And then?" Susan asked cooperatively. Xiao Jing poked the yogurt. "I haven''t taken a big holiday yet!" "..." Susan didn''t react for a moment. "What does it matter?" Xiao Jing gritted his teeth. "It''s a big deal... Who knows if Chen Shao wants to be a shopkeeper and go with his wife?" When Susan heard this, she burst out laughing, almost laughing. She looked at Xiao Jing''s increasingly dark face and held back her smile, but she said with a look of schadenfreude: "Xiao Jing, those who can do more work... Well, it''s soy sauce purple!" "..." Xiao Jing put down the yogurt, "no, I think I have to catch up." With that, the man had got up and went to Gu Beichen''s office. "Dong Dong!" "Enter!" Xiao Jing pushed the door and went in. "Chen Shao..." as soon as he opened his mouth, Gu Beichen looked up slowly, looking at him coldly but fiercely. Xiao Jing swallowed involuntarily and felt that he had no backbone. "Well... Well, I think this thing is behind... Should I have a holiday?" After finishing the words with difficulty, Xiao Jing felt that the big office was not a warm breath at once, but returned to the cold winter. Gu Beichen slowly leaned back on the seat, with a trace of evil cunning in his lazy posture, "well, you''re really tired these days." "..." Xiao Jing twitched at his temples. For Mao, he felt that Chen Shao didn''t understand him, but was digging a hole and waiting for him to jump? "Xiao Jing, after you follow me, you should not only deal with the affairs of the emperor, but also secretly solve some things that can''t be solved in the open..." Gu Beichen''s voice was faint, so people couldn''t hear his emotion. Xiao Jing grinned secretly. "When the Dragon boss put you by my side, first, I was afraid that if no one like you followed me, I would return to England; second, I really couldn''t do some things myself." Gu Beichen continued blandly, "and you, in finance and management, are the strongest of Xiao''s five siblings..." "..." Xiao Jing suddenly felt that he had never known Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen sighed, "now I have Jian Mo by my side. During that time in Britain, I think it will never appear on me again. Well, what should be solved now is also solved. You are really tired..." "Chen Shao," said Xiao Jing, gritting his teeth, "you won!" When he finished, he turned angrily and left the office. Mom, Gu Beichen, do you have a lower limit Always threaten him with "return goods"! "No big holiday?" When Susan saw Xiao Jing''s gloomy face, she guessed and smiled at the corners of her mouth, "well, what can you think of... Let me guess, Chen Shao must want you to go back to Xiao Shao?!" Xiao Jing sat down angrily and sucked up all the yogurt. "Does Chen Shao really think I can''t go back to brother Xiao?!" "Then you go back..." Susan has the ability on her face, so you are tough. Xiao Jing twitched at the corner of his mouth and softened immediately. "Do you think people really want to be cheap? Chen Shao oppressed me so much, how can I still love to follow him?" "Because he hurts..." Susan said a little casually, but it made people''s nose a little sour. She and Xiao Jing are the people who know everything about Gu Beichen best. This man, from decadence to now, everything is worth following. "You said, Chen Shao, how long will I be forced this time?" As Xiao Jing ate, he felt like chewing Gu Beichen''s meat. "I don''t know." Xiao Jing''s face collapsed. "I think I should raise his head while Chen Shao and Mrs. Shao go this time..." "Why don''t you appoint me as CEO?" Just as Xiao Jing''s words fell, Gu Beichen''s voice came faintly outside the tea room Chapter 900 Xiao Jing bared his teeth and looked at Susan with a smile. His face turned dark and joked: "Chen Shao, if you let director Jane appoint me as CEO," he grinned, "are you going to be my special help?" Gu Beichen copied his pocket with both hands, thought about it carefully, and then nodded, "well, you can..." Just when Susan and Xiao Jing were a little surprised, Gu Beichen slowly said, "but I just don''t know. Do you dare to sit in the back when I drive? I''m standing, can you sit calmly and listen to my report... When you date a woman, will you let me wait outside the car?" "..." Xiao Jing stared, and the corners of his mouth twitched completely out of his control. "Hahaha -" Susan''s laughing voice reverberated unbridled in the tea room. Looking at Xiao Jing''s appearance of eating Xiang, she thought the joke could be laughed for a year. Xiao Jing was very depressed, and his mood was even worse. He originally wanted to tease Chen Shao. Why is this man not in line with the setting of cold and crazy bullying? Don''t be black?! "Ah..." Xiao Jinglian lay face down on the table, gnashing his teeth and moaning, "the baby''s heart is bitter!" "I''m sorry!" Susan patted Xiao Jing on the shoulder and came out of the tea room with a good mood in contrast to Xiao Jing''s gloomy mood Then, I thought less about it for Chen, and sorted out a note for travel according to the woman''s mind. Gu Beichen is happy and gives Susan a 10% year-end bonus. Suddenly, Xiao Jing felt that the difference between people was so big?! ¡­¡­ New York, USA. The morning sunshine penetrates the branches softly and hits the clean windows mottled. Early in the morning, the special nurse did morning massage and washing for star. "Ah..." The tender, soft and waxy laughter echoed in the room full of childlike fun. Star grinned with a small pink mouth and waved his small hands on his legs. "He loves to laugh..." a special nurse sighed. "I''ve rarely seen star make trouble for more than a month. I''ve never seen such a clever child." "Yes!" Another special nurse dressed star and said, "I always think star''s smile is as clean as the dawn. It makes people feel that the world has become particularly beautiful..." Shi Shaoqin stood at the door with his hands in his pockets. Several busy special nurses didn''t notice because they had a good chat. "Star is good-looking and clever. I don''t know how many girls will be charmed when I grow up..." the younger special nurse said with a smile. Shi Shaoqin slightly narrowed his narrow eyes and suddenly couldn''t wait to see star grow up. I don''t know. What kind of girl will he like in the future? As long as he likes, well, he accepts Shi Shaoqin thought so, and did so in the future. "Qin Shao..." someone found Shi Shaoqin. Everyone looked a little timid. I don''t know if they had a good chat just now. Did they say anything that Shi Shaoqin didn''t like to listen to. Shi Shaoqin walked forward indifferently, bent over and gently picked up star The little guy immediately smiled more happily. His soft and cute pure eyes looked at Shi Shaoqin like a twinkling star, and his small mouth grinned and spilled saliva All the nurses widened their eyes and saw star''s saliva. Because he moved excitedly, he directly rubbed Shi Shaoqin''s face. The atmosphere was suddenly a little stiff, and everyone dared not breathe. Some people even thought that Shi Shaoqin would throw star away directly because of this However, they think too much. Shi Shaoqin just smiled helplessly and spread his hand. The discerning special nurse quickly took a clean handkerchief and put it in his hand. He saw that Shi Shaoqin wiped the saliva on the corner of star''s mouth before wiping himself. "It''s sunny outside today," Shi Shaoqin gestured to change a clean handkerchief for a rainy day. "Let''s go out for a walk..." With that, he took a clean handkerchief and carried star out of the room, who didn''t know what had happened from beginning to end and smiled more and more happily. "Oh my God..." the young special nurse hugged her hands and looked intoxicated. "Qin Shao, how many women are you going to charm? Her gentle heart has melted!" How can a cold and even cold bloodthirsty man be so free to change freely in the role of father?! The most important thing is that it is not abrupt at all, and even the picture is beautiful and intoxicating Awei leaned against the window, and his indifferent face became a little strange because of the scar. "Qin Shao saved the child?!" Awei''s tone was a little strange. Xi Cheng didn''t know what medicine was beating in his hand, but said with a sense of achievement: "I found that my hands can save people. Tut Tut, I suddenly felt that I could study it deeply later." Ah Wei Dang frowned and looked at Shi Shaoqin with a sudden change in painting style. At the same time, he also looked at Xi Cheng, a pervert drug maniac, who said he wanted to save people?! He suddenly felt that the future ink palace would not change because of a child?! Thinking of this, awei''s face was extremely gloomy and didn''t say anything. He walked to the pharmaceutical room with a cold hum Gu Beichen stayed in the Mo palace for three months. He was the first person to leave the Mo palace within three months in the history of the Mo palace. Then, Qin Shao wants to change even if he hasn''t changed for him. Now, a child of Gu Beichen has completely changed Awei''s face became gloomy. He stopped at the door and looked at Xi Cheng. "Qin Shao asked and said I''m leaving." "If you''re going to tell Jue Shao about the existence of star, I advise you not to confront Qin Shao." Xi Cheng looked up with a smile on his mouth. "Of course, you want to be worse than Mosen''s end. I don''t mind watching." Awei Leng hum, "do you think Jue Shao will never know?" "That''s what Qin Shao wants him to know..." Xi Cheng smiled with no temperature. "If Qin Shao doesn''t want to, Jue Shao can''t know the existence of star in his life." They all know that Shi Shaoqin has this ability. Even, in order to make Shi juechi not know that star exists, he will kill all the people he has contacted with star in cold blood "Of course," Xi Cheng didn''t intend to persuade, "I won''t persuade you what you want to do... Just give you some advice!" Then he continued to study the medicine and didn''t want to worry about what awei was going to do. Awei''s face was cold and dark. Without saying anything, he turned and left in a big step. Awei finally didn''t go to find Shi juechi or return to Mo palace, but took a plane to Los Angeles He tilted his head and looked out of the small window. The plane''s gears crossed. While the roar came, the plane was climbing If the ink palace changes, is it still the ink palace? He didn''t allow it. After Gu Beichen disturbed the water in the ink palace, his son changed the ink palace! Well, if Gu Beichen knows the existence of star... Isn''t it, everything won''t change?! Chapter 901 Friday. The smell of spring in Los Angeles is getting stronger and stronger. The fragrance of flowers everywhere makes people feel refreshed. "Gu Beichen, Jian Mo, are you all right?" J put the food into his mouth in two bites, and his face couldn''t wait. "I don''t know. I thought the milk bag was your son..." Jane Mo couldn''t stand it. J snorted, "I''ll change my clothes first." Long sleeved T-shirts, some hip-hop jeans, decorative baseball caps, a pair of skates J''s whole body is full of youthful vitality, which is completely different from that when he was in the ink palace. Jane Mo sometimes thinks that J should leave the Mo palace. For a big boy like him, life should be publicized wantonly Of course, if he didn''t fight Gu Beichen from time to time and paralyze his computer, Jian Mo thought he was really a big boy! Compared with J''s casual hip-hop, Gu Beichen is still in a suit and shoes. Jian Mo is relatively casual, but he is not particularly casual. After all, today''s parents appear in school as milk bags. In the end, their identities are different now. "J, have you ever thought about going to college?" On the way, Jane asked. J is only 18 years old after the end of the year. Life shouldn''t be wasted like this "No!" J turned his face to the other side and looked at the passing scenery outside the car. His whole face was gloomy. Gu Beichen drove the car and looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror. Just one glance, he saw through J''s careful thinking. "I''ll do these things, such as identity and student status." Gu Beichen astringed his eyes and said, "if you don''t mind, if you have the surname of me or Mo mo." Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen with some doubts. J also stared at him, obviously with a complicated look. Jane Mo secretly blamed herself for some thoughtlessness and asked. J doesn''t even have a formal name now. How can he enter school? She didn''t ask before, but it is estimated that in the past few years in the Mo palace, all his previous identities have disappeared? Jian Mo pulled off J''s sleeve with some guilt and said to the suspect with a little flattery: "Hey, Mr. Gu is so domineering. After you and his last name, he has to enslave you... Why don''t you be my brother?" J''s expression became more complicated. He hummed in his nose and didn''t look at Jian mo. "You think, your code name is j, which is the same as the first spelling of my last name... Right?" Jane Mo was still careful, "why don''t you go to University of Los Angeles? My alma mater is very good!" J''s eyes twinkled with some emotion, but it was still awkward to hum in his nose. Jane Mo frowned and thought J didn''t want to at all. She sighed secretly and didn''t say anything more. She just turned off the topic. Spencer, as the most famous noble private school in the country, not only has good teaching quality, but also has good confidentiality for celebrities. The spring sports meeting is divided into various grade groups and kindergartens, which are generally dominated by entertainment. As soon as Gu Beichen and Jian Mo arrived, many people with other thoughts gathered together today, but they were blocked by Gu Beichen''s indifferent sentence "please don''t disturb our family". Gu Beichen, no matter how soft he is to Jian Mo, can''t change his image of ruthless and domineering decisiveness in the outside world. No one really dares to go against the scales. For fear of offending this man, don''t talk about cooperation in the future. He was directly banned by the emperor. All morning, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo accompanied Jian Jie and stayed at Spencer. I''m tired of being with J, and I like them better. According to his words, the generation gap is small! "Ah Chen..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen unscrewed the water and handed it to Jian Mo, "what''s the matter?" "Did I hurt J today?" Jane Mo asked with some hesitation. Gu Beichen said with a smile on his thin lips, "it''s his own discomfort." Jian Mo drank water, looked at J and Gu Beichen. "I''ll talk to him later," Gu Beichen casually folded his legs. "No matter what major he chooses, he really can''t just muddle around like this." Although J is very smart and good at computers But without the blessing of culture, he will empty his talent sooner or later, which is not a good thing. ¡­¡­ Ye Chenyu looked dignified. While looking at the data being transmitted on his mobile phone, he drove the car to shuttle quickly on the road. Suddenly, another mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. He took it out, looked at it and quickly picked it up. "Uncle Qiang!" "The other party is destroying the data. How much has it been transmitted?" The man called Uncle Qiang has a worried voice. Ye Chenyu looked at the mobile phone with eye data, and his voice was dignified, "there are still 37%." Uncle Qiang hissed, "where are you?" "On the way!" Ye Chenyu looked in the rearview mirror. "Someone has been chasing, I can''t stop, I can only wait for the data to be transmitted..." his voice was a little dignified, which can be seen that he was obviously calm under the crisis. Uncle Qiang answered, "be careful yourself..." paused, "Chenyu, this evidence is very important." "I understand..." Ye Chenyu pulled the steering wheel. After a sudden brake, he drove back from the other side of the driveway. The person opposite secretly gritted his teeth and didn''t take care of the traffic lights. He followed Ye Chenyu''s car very fast and sped away Ye Chenyu drove wildly on the road and occasionally looked at the mobile phone transmitting data. As the data was transmitted bit by bit, his heart also mentioned to his throat. Ye Chenyu''s face was dignified. When he got his things, his undercover identity was not exposed. It didn''t make much sense to him. However, if the data is destroyed after exposure, it will be even more difficult to catch some people. Suddenly Ye Chenyu''s car crossed an express car, and his eyes looked aside subconsciously. The sight passed through quickly, but at a glance, ye Chenyu still recognized that the person driving the express car was Gu mohuai and his middleman during the Chinese New Year. Ye Chenyu frowned slightly. At first, he didn''t think much. He just thought that the man was dressed up as a courier in order to disguise his identity... But obviously, he wasn''t! Recently, because the undercover case entered the final stage, he almost worked day and night. Coupled with Gu mohuai''s imprisonment, he almost forgot this man when the case of Jian Zhanfeng''s falling from a building was settled. Ye Chenyu ran away crazily and glanced at the mobile phone transmitting data while his brain was flying. "No..." Ye Chenyu suddenly murmured, and suddenly his eyes flashed a sharp light belonging to the police. He couldn''t care about anything else. He hurried to take the mobile phone of Uncle Qiang and called Gu Beichen. Gu mohuai has been jailed. It''s always good to let him know whether the courier just takes money to do business or has any problems. Gu Beichen was wiping Jian Jie''s sweat when his mobile phone rang. "Daddy is busy first!" Jian Jie said softly and took the water from J. Gu Beichen nodded and took out his mobile phone. Seeing that it was a strange number, he frowned slightly, or went aside to answer the phone, "hello?" "Beichen, it''s me." Ye Chenyu''s voice was dignified, "you..." "Bang!" "Squeak -" "Clang!" Ye Chenyu''s words had just begun. Gu Beichen''s mobile phone suddenly heard a harsh voice... With the smell of death! Chapter 902 Jian Mo felt Gu Beichen''s dignified face, slightly frowned, came forward and asked, "ah Chen?" "I have something to leave first..." Gu Beichen''s face suddenly became dignified. He had almost no time to say more. He turned and walked to the parking lot. "Mommy?" Jane Jay jumped over. "What''s daddy doing?" Jane Mo felt a little uneasy and spread, but didn''t bring such emotion to her face. "It seems that there is something wrong with the company," she squatted down and looked at Jane Jie flat. "It seems that next, J and I can only accompany you." Jian Jie was a little lost. Looking at Gu Beichen''s hurried back, his eyes were obviously hard to hide his loss, but he pulled his small mouth and said with a smile: "it seems that it can only be so." Jane Mo stroked Jane Jie''s little head and didn''t expose the little guy''s loss. Wait, the milk bag is going to be the final of a project. I hope my father is around. Is this the biggest driving force for every child? However, she also knows ah Chen He won''t leave unless it''s particularly important. Gu Beichen got into the car and hurriedly called Xiao Jing, "I''ll send you the number and check the location as soon as possible." "OK." Xiao Jing answered, without asking anything more, and hurriedly began to investigate. After positioning, Xiao Jing said the address to Gu Beichen and asked, "Chen Shao, do I want to go there?" "Yes." Gu Beichen doesn''t know what happened to Ye Chenyu yet. Xiao Jing goes to prepare for a rainy day. Two cars, one from emperor and the other from Spencer, sped to the place where ye Chenyu had an accident At the same time, ambulances and traffic police rushed to the scene after receiving the report. Ye Chenyu only felt that there was a fog in front of him. Everything was illusory and couldn''t see clearly Something wet and drenched was full of bloody breath, which filled his nose. He breathed heavily and wanted to touch his mobile phone. However, neither the mobile phone transmitting data nor the mobile phone calling Gu Beichen can be seen The world seems to be shrouded in a dignified atmosphere. Ye Chenyu''s last consciousness was that someone was crazy and afraid of hitting the window, as if shouting at him "Come on!" "Notify emergency surgery..." The sound of the roller of the hospital bed was rubbing against the smooth ground, and the anxious sound showed the chaos of war in a hurry. When Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing arrive at the scene of the car accident, ye Chenyu has been sent to the hospital. Xiao Jing stays to understand the situation. Gu Beichen gets on the bus and goes to the hospital again. Ye Chenyu has been sent to the operating room. Looking at the middle-aged man standing outside, his eagle eyes suddenly gathered and walked forward "President Gu?" Uncle Qiang was obviously a little surprised to see Gu Beichen here. "Chenyu online?!" Although Gu Beichen asked again, it was obvious that he was sure. Uncle Qiang was a little surprised, "I didn''t expect you to know..." "I funded him to go to the police academy. I think," Gu Beichen said in a cold voice, "you won''t know!" Since ye Chenyu has been chosen as an undercover agent, how dare you hand over the task to him if his foundation is unclear?! Uncle Qiang twitched at the corner of his mouth. He knew Gu Beichen and that he funded Ye Chenyu to go to the police academy However, for the first time, this person obviously put pressure on him to be out of age. "What happened?" Gu Beichen glanced at the signal light in the operation. Uncle Qiang thought about it and said roughly, "when the data is available, there is the most powerful evidence to disintegrate the whole criminal group, but there is still 2% of the final data, and Chenyu had a car accident..." Uncle Qiang told Gu Beichen that this thing should not be said to outsiders is actually selfish. The evidence Ye Chenyu got is very important. It would be a pity if it were destroyed... But if Gu Beichen could do better, it would be good for both criminals and ye Chenyu to restore his police identity. "Intentional?" Gu Beichen is light. Uncle Qiang shook his head. "Just now the traffic police gave a message. It''s true that someone is chasing... But the car accident is an accident." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "what a surprise..." Uncle Qiang grinned secretly. In fact, under such circumstances, sometimes the accident is not an accident. It''s just that the preliminary investigation of the scene was really just an accident. And such an accident is tacit Time passed little by little, and the atmosphere became particularly dignified because of waiting for surgery. "That..." Uncle Qiang forbeared and looked at Gu Beichen and asked, "Mr. Gu, you have a good relationship with Li Shao, you see..." Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face showed a haze, "Yunze''s hand was injured and could not be operated on in the near future." "..." Uncle Qiang twitched at the corners of his mouth, sighed secretly, and didn''t speak again. He looked anxiously at the operating room and was worried, but there was no way. Now that the evidence has not been obtained, it will be a great loss if ye Chenyu''s life is caught up... Not only does Ye Chenyu himself like it very much, but it is not easy for the police force to cultivate such a talent! Gu Beichen''s mobile phone vibrated in time. He took it out indifferently and knew it was Jian Mo''s. Mo''er: is it serious? Gu Beichen replied quickly: a friend had a car accident. I''m in the hospital. Don''t worry. As soon as Jian Mo saw it, she immediately asked a few worried questions. Gu Beichen replied: I''m still in the operating room. I won''t know the situation until I come out... Say sorry to Xiaojie for me. Mo''er: Daddy, pray that your friends will be safe! Looking at Jian Jie''s words, Gu Beichen smiled a little, and his heart was warm: Thank you, baby! The operation time is long. Gu Beichen calmly sits on the chair in the waiting area "Chen Shao, deal with it." Xiao Jing came over, looked at Uncle Qiang, leaned over and whispered, "because the accident was serious, the two mobile phones in the car were damaged to a great extent. I''m afraid it''s difficult to recover the data." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but the eagle''s eyes gradually became deep and bottomless In that case, Chenyu should let the data be transmitted to the online as soon as possible while trying to get rid of the chaser. Calling him is obviously not in line with the situation of the crisis at that time It can''t be asking him for help. Why?! "Let J go and have a look," Gu Beichen said calmly, "see if the data can be recovered!" In any case, this was bought by Chenyu undercover for so many years. If it was destroyed in the end, wouldn''t it be a waste of so many years of youth? As for why he should call him, it seems that he can only wait until he wakes up "Good!" Xiao Jing answered, looked at Uncle Qiang who looked at them from time to time, and then got up and left the hospital. The mobile phone has become the on-site evidence, sealed up and brought back to the police station. I''m afraid someone will block it if you want to take out things and let J recover data... It seems that you need to use some extraordinary means. Xiao Jing thought that he had started the car and left the hospital. Ye Chenyu''s operation lasted four hours. When the signal light went out, uncle Qiang instinctively jumped up. Gu Beichen didn''t move, but a pair of eagle eyes fell on the closed door of the operating room The nurse opened the door of the operating room first, and several doctors came out. "Doctor, how are the people inside?" Uncle Qiang''s voice was obviously nervous, "is everything safe?" Gu Beichen stood up at the right time and didn''t come forward, but his eyes crossed the doctor sharply Chapter 903 The doctor subconsciously looked at Gu Beichen and was secretly surprised that he was here. "The operation was very successful, but the patient had multiple fractures in his ribs and a strong impact on his brain..." The doctor said professionally, and uncle Qiang twisted his eyebrows. "What is the result?" Uncle Qiang is a little anxious. The doctor sighed, "although the operation is very successful, when the patient wakes up, we have to observe..." The final meaning is very simple. I will wake up in these days, but the specific day depends on the patient''s condition. "Can you move it?" Gu Beichen spoke indifferently. The doctor shook his head. "It''s best not to transfer to another hospital first. It will affect the patient''s bone repair." Gu Beichen nodded. "If the hospital needs anything, you can come to me directly," he glanced at Uncle Qiang. "Whether it''s medical capital or equipment." Let''s not say whether ye Chenyu''s undercover identity can be restored. Even if it''s the funds of the police station, if something happens, it''s estimated that he won''t be able to do it long after the approval is given Gu Beichen knows the darkness better than anyone else. As soon as the doctor heard this, he immediately flashed a surprise in the depths of his eyes, "OK, then I..." "Contact Xiao Jing directly." Gu Beichen said, looking at Uncle Qiang, "I''ll go and see him." "President Gu and I went there..." Uncle Qiang quickly explained to the doctor and followed Gu Beichen''s footsteps. "President Gu, that..." what he wanted to say, but finally he became a helpless sigh, "thank you!" "You don''t need to thank me," Gu Beichen took a pocket with one hand and walked steadily with indifference. "I hope that after this time, Chenyu can return to the police..." After a pause, he stopped and looked at Uncle Qiang. "Once he has been undercover for seven or eight years, are you going to see him exposed and killed, or killed by his own people?" Uncle Qiang shook his head, "I have submitted Chenyu''s file to the Bureau. I originally planned to restore his identity after the completion of this task..." he sighed with some regret, "originally, when the evidence is in hand, he will be directly promoted to the positive section level, but now..." Gu Beichen took back his sight and continued to walk, but coldly put down a sentence, "I''ll find a way to give you the data!" Uncle Qiang was frozen in place and looked at Gu Beichen''s cold and arrogant back. For a moment, he didn''t know how to react ¡­¡­ Jian Mo watched Jian Jie receive the award on the stage, took photos and sent them to Gu Beichen. "Mommy, I''ll change my clothes..." Jane Jie handed the trophy to Jane Mo, "don''t break it. This is what I want to give to Daddy." "..." Jian Mo was immediately dissatisfied, and she hummed and replied stiffly. Previously in London, I didn''t see milk bags to participate in kindergarten activities. This time, I participated. The prize was given to Gu Beichen Jane Mo was a little dissatisfied and turned her mouth. She felt that she should have a daughter next time, so that at least they could be beautiful together, so as not to dislike her like a milk bag. She did get what she wanted later Gave birth to a daughter, also together Meida! However, she was more worried about why after the child was born, she didn''t want her mother. She was tired of Gu Beichen''s arms? Isn''t she so childless? Jane Mo said she was very sad, but she was often conquered by the picture of Gu Beichen holding her daughter, which was so harmonious that she couldn''t be more harmonious. She felt that she was really born with the character of shaking M. Jane Mo looked at the trophy in her hand and looked back at Jane Jie, who was talking and laughing with J to change clothes. She was clearly "angry" and jealous, but her eyes were full of laughter. I looked back, and I flashed across a little girl Jane Mo frowned slightly and suddenly remembered something. Xiao Yi came over and looked up at Jian Mo with a confident smile on his face. "Aunt Mo, I''m Xiao Yi." "Are you..." Jane Mo hesitated to ask something, but she was afraid to hurt the little girl''s self-esteem. Xiao Yi didn''t think so. "Well, I''m the girl you met last time." Jane Mo squatted down. Unlike last time, she was stubborn and rebellious. Now, she is obviously full of self-confidence and positive, "are you going to school here now?" "Yes!" Xiao Yi raised her eyebrows with pride on her small face. "Xiao Jing said that I will help Gu Yan in the future, so I must grow up as fast as possible! Obviously, the education here is great..." Jane Mo frowned and didn''t know what to say. Everyone has their own value of existence. However, the little girl is at most seven or eight years old. Will Xiao Jing instill ideas into her like this Xiao Yi saw Jian Mo''s worry and said with a smile, "aunt Mo, I''m glad to receive such an education. You don''t know how eager I am for all this." Perhaps, in the eyes of others, constant learning will lose childhood. However, how eager she was to learn in her previous childhood, others don''t know Now that she has such an opportunity, she will naturally cherish it more. Jane Mo was in love with Xiao Yi, but she comforted her in the end. She couldn''t laugh or cry. However, she didn''t say much Everyone has their own life. Xiao Yi doesn''t reject such learning, which shows that she likes it and doesn''t resist it. After all, a child who has been beaten and scolded by his stepfather since childhood is more eager than ordinary children for things that are originally accessible but can''t be obtained "Young lady!" Susan got out of the car when she saw Jane Mo and others coming out. "Why are you here?" Jane was a little surprised. Susan smiled and said, "Xiao Jing is busy. Chen Shao asked me to pick you up..." A warm current flows through the heart. Jane Mo smiles at the corners of her mouth, and her eyes are full of tenderness A man can arrange his own woman when he is busy and has something to do. That only shows... You are in his heart. Although, Jane Mo never doubted But such intimacy still makes her feel full of happiness every day. ¡­¡­ Ye Chenyu''s car accident caused a lot of agitation in Los Angeles. Because of the road congestion and the large and small involvement of many cars on the road, some reports have been made in the local network media, radio and television news in Los Angeles. The TV of the express company also happened to broadcast the news of the car accident. Someone saw Cheng Qing coming back and asked with concern, "Cheng Qing, didn''t you just go to the area to deliver the express? Are you okay?" Cheng Qing shook his head and looked at the TV The picture in the surveillance video is playing on the TV. The big car that has lost the brake rushes crazy to the road, and the speed of the off-road vehicle is also very fast. The two cars collided and the SUV was overturned and fell to the ground again He was indeed nearby and even witnessed the scene. Such impact force, huge sound... Full of the breath of death. "I don''t know how people are?" A courier looked at the TV picture and said heavily. "In this case, it is estimated that you will not die and half your life will be lost..." Cheng Qing looked at the speaker and then looked at the TV again. The car accident report only said it was an accident, but if such a scene is not an accident, is it Cheng Qing''s eyes suddenly became familiar with Yin and Ji. At this moment, his blood seemed to boil. "Cheng Qing, what''s the matter with you?" Someone passed Cheng Qing. "You look like you''re going to kill!" "I think he saw the car accident and thought he was nearby. Are you afraid?" Someone laughed. Cheng Qing just smiled. "I''ll get the express to be delivered in the next area first..." said, and the others went to the express section. However, after crossing the crowd, his face gradually overflowed with the haze under the ruthlessness, with the sullen violence under the blood madness! Chapter 904 When Gu Beichen came back, Jian Jie had gone to bed and j went out halfway. He told Jian Mo that he was going to the Internet cafe to play CS team war. Recently, j is a fan of CS. She doesn''t doubt anything. She just explained that she must come back before 12 pm. It''s access control. If he doesn''t come back, he will return to his Mo palace Well, it really coincides with Gu Beichen that he likes to "return goods"! "Why didn''t you sleep?" Gu Beichen asked with a slight frown when he saw Jian Mo drawing a design drawing on the table. Jane Mo didn''t move either, so she supported her left cheek with her hand, looked at Gu Beichen''s action and said with a smile: "wait for you..." Gu Beichen smiled and walked forward. Seeing that Jian Mo was drawing the design drawing, he frowned and asked, "didn''t he say he didn''t take up his work recently?" "I heard that Zixiao was going to expand the law firm a few days ago," Jian Mo said without concealment. "I want to give him a gift." Chu Zixiao doesn''t lack anything. All she can send is a design drawing. Gu Beichen sat down on one side. The eagle''s eyes looked at the design drawing of Jian Mo''s line, and the ink pupil became deep Unlike Zixiao design law firm five years ago, there is one place that is always unsatisfactory. Today''s Jian Mo, after the baptism of UCL, whether architectural design or interior design, has long been proficient to casual. "Not afraid of how he thinks?" Gu Beichen asked deliberately. His voice was full of charm. While his words fell, his line of sight also looked at Jian mo. Jane Mo smiled, "if I escape, will he think more?" In fact, there are only two ways to put it down. One is indifferent to no emotion, the other is calm enough to get along as an ordinary relationship. When she really put down, Zixiao will slowly be relieved. In time, her feelings are gradually taken away by other girls ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao sits on the lounge chair on the balcony of the apartment building. The large glass window makes the vision extremely broad. In the ink sky, there are many stars, which meet with the neon of Los Angeles, a city that never sleeps in the distance. In the sight of gradually losing focus, the halo is dyed into a piece. The vibration of the mobile phone broke Chu Zixiao''s free thoughts. He took it out and saw that it was Tang Yu. He picked it up indifferently, "huh?" "Where is it?" "At home." Chu Zixiao spoke calmly. "Come out to drink, heaven night..." Tang Yu''s voice was excited. "Several students came from other places on business. They were all there. They had to call you over." Chu Zixiao asked who they were and answered, "I''ll wait." "OK..." Tang Yu hung up the phone and began to shout to everyone, "ah Xiao will come later. Let''s go first." Chu Zixiao got up, changed into relatively casual clothes and drove to heaven night The place where he lives is also close to heaven night. He will arrive in half an hour. When the talent entered the elevator, Chu Zixiao''s phone rang again. He thought Tang Yu urged him and took out a look, but it was a strange number. Slightly frowned. Chu Zixiao didn''t want to answer, but he didn''t know what was going on. The actions in his hand were not synchronized with his thoughts. When he reacted, the mobile phone had been connected and put in his ear. "Who?" "Chu Zixiao, you... Can you do me a favor?" On the other side of the mobile phone, there was a nervous and forbearing voice, with a trace of fear. Chu Zixiao frowned slightly. Although the other party didn''t say who it was, he suddenly recognized that it was Zhang Nian. "What''s up?" "You..." Zhang Nian seemed to be very hesitant, but there was no way. He had to bite his lip and said, "if you have time now, can you pretend to be my boyfriend?" "No!" Chu Zixiao''s indifferent refusal. The sound of "Ding" came, and the elevator arrived at the floor in time. Chu Zixiao walked out and said, "I have something else to do, that''s all." No matter what he said, Zhang Nian shouted anxiously "wait, listen to me first..." and hung up the phone. Chu Zixiao reached the box and pushed the door in. When the people inside saw him, they stood up excitedly and pulled him in while joking and joking. "The speed is quite fast. I won''t say anything. I''ll have two drinks first!" "Zixiao, you have become a celebrity now. If you want to see you, you can only get it from the newspapers and media..." "Yes, the court that cooperated with Mo Shaochen some time ago, your son''s mouth. In the future, if we have a case against you, we should show mercy!" "Hahaha..." "Why is there so much nonsense? Drink!" Tang Yu took the wine bottle and began to pour the wine, "don''t be poor!" When men are together, there will be a scene when there is wine. After a while, everyone has played to one place. But from beginning to end, Chu Zixiao has been light. He didn''t drink less wine, but he didn''t show his extraordinary state at all. "Zixiao is the same as school. He looks like an elegant male god. He will go crazy only in front of Jian mo..." someone drank a little too much and ran off the train at once. As soon as his words fell, the atmosphere in the whole box was a little condensed. Chu Zixiao, Gu Beichen and Jian mo were more or less exposed in the media last year. The first love has become his little aunt. Anyway, it is also a scar. The speaker also felt that what he said was inappropriate, but it was useless to regret, "shit, I drank too much... I''ll punish three cups and wake up!" "It''s all right," Chu Zixiao said faintly, so that people can''t hear his emotion. "Originally, he would only go crazy in front of her." After a pause, he saw that the atmosphere was still a little stiff, and the corners of his mouth smiled, "who hasn''t ordered it? What are you doing..." "Yes!" Tang Yu couldn''t stand it. "Come on, continue to drink... However, those who want to go to court tomorrow can stop!" Tang Yu was originally a social expert. He warmed up for a while, and everyone was a man. After a while, the atmosphere became warm. "It''s all right?" Tang Yu asked after a chance. Chu Zixiao''s eyes were deep. "What he said is the truth. Isn''t it strange to hide it?" "Just lick the wound yourself..." Tang Yu sighed deeply. "Don''t say anything. Come and drink! Anyway, you don''t have a court to open these two days." Chu Zixiao didn''t say anything more. He took the wine cup handed over by Tang Yu, touched each other and drank the wine in one breath. "Ah Yu, only by facing the wound, can I recover..." After the wine entered his throat, Chu Zixiao narrowed his eyes slightly and then opened his mouth. His voice was very light, almost covered by the noise in the box, but Tang Yu could still hear it clearly. He loves this brother and partner, but he is also happy for him... Because he really wants to come out, not disguise. Just thinking, Chu Zixiao''s mobile phone vibrated. He took it out indifferently and crossed the text message: please, really, as long as tonight... I won''t expect anything because you disguised my boyfriend! Chapter 905 Chu Zixiao looked at the text message, and her eyes gradually became deep and bottomless. Although there was no sound, it was obvious that this text message was more helpless and begging than when I just called him It seems that there is no way, and I dare not call him again. I can only send a winding text message. Tang Yu thought Chu Zixiao looked a little strange. He glanced at him and subconsciously leaned over to read the text message. "Who is this?" Tang Yu asked curiously, "can''t it be wrong or want to use this way to attract your attention?" After all, whether Chu Zixiao is the only son of Chu group or his own conditions, there are many women who want to pick him up. The mobile phone screen darkened in time, and Chu Zixiao looked at Tang Yu "Why are you looking at me like this?" Tang Yu frowned, "your mind was on Jian mo before, but now it''s on the case... I don''t know how terrible the girls are now." Tang Yu said unintentionally, but Chu Zixiao frowned on the sword eyebrow. "But do you know this man?" Tang Yu asked again. Chu Zixiao didn''t speak. His mobile phone vibrated again in his hand. He subconsciously opened it: Chu Zixiao, just this time! "Know you?!" Tang Yu was surprised and looked at Chu Zixiao in surprise, "who is it?" Chu Zixiao looked at the message and frowned slightly. Inexplicably, there was always a feeling that made him hair. After receiving the mobile phone, Chu Zixiao suddenly got up, "I have something to do, you play first..." Then he walked out with great strides. "Zixiao..." someone shouted, but Chu Zixiao people had left the box, "Tang Yu, what did Zixiao do?" "Jianghu emergency." Tang Yu didn''t say much. The people ridiculed with dissatisfaction, but there was not much entanglement. After all, now that we are all social people, it is normal for something to happen suddenly. Chu Zixiao called Zhang Nian while entering the elevator, "address!" Zhang Nian almost didn''t respond to the cold words. He was stunned for two seconds and hurriedly said, "I''m in Feitian hotel. I''ll pick you up when you arrive." Chu Zixiao frowned involuntarily, but he didn''t think much. He just made a indifferent "um" sound and hung up the phone. Because he had just drunk a lot of wine, Chu Zixiao didn''t drive. He just took a taxi and went to Feitian hotel. When he was about to arrive, he called Zhang Nian. When the car stopped, she was already waiting at the door. When Zhang Nian saw Chu Zixiao get off the bus, the heart she had been carrying finally fell back to her stomach, "thank you really..." when she said this sentence, her nose was obviously a little sour. "What happened?" Chu Zixiao asked indifferently, his face showing alienation under the charm of elite men. Zhang Nianzhe lowered his lower lip. On his simple face, he hung his eyes with a little uneasy, and said in a soft waxy voice, "my parents have come and want to take me back... But I don''t like the way they arranged for me. I said, I stay here because I have an excellent male friend." With that, she raised her eyes at the corner of her mouth, looked at Chu Zixiao timidly and said, "they want to see you. If they are not good enough, they still want to take me back..." Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian with a ponytail and looked slightly deeper. "Nursing is my favorite profession," Zhang nianyi explained a little anxiously, "but I''m just an intern. The people around me are either classmates or patients... I can''t find a particularly excellent one at once, so..." At last, Zhang Nian''s face turned a little red. Because Chu Zixiao is actually one of the patients she takes care of. "Let''s go!" Chu Zixiao spoke faintly and took the lead in. Seeing Zhang Nian''s appearance, Chu Zixiao suddenly remembered Jian Mo at school Similarly, because of their love for the industry they will enter, such people need to be respected. Modern people have long forgotten their love and dream because of money and bath hope, haven''t they? Feitian Hotel Chinese restaurant box, as a famous hotel in Los Angeles, the decoration and environment are first-class. Standing at the door of the box, Zhang Nian looked at Chu Zixiao with a little uneasy before pushing open the heavy double door. "Dad, mom..." Zhang Nian smiled at the corners of her mouth, looked at the middle-aged men and women sitting on the main seat inside, and shouted coquettishly, "Zixiao is coming." Zhang Zhengtang and Yang Yi both looked at Chu Zixiao who followed in. One looked with sharp examination, and the other looked obviously at their son-in-law, full of satisfaction. "Uncle and aunt..." Chu Zixiao said, "I just had an entertainment and didn''t come in time. I hope you''ll forgive me." Zhang Zhengtang didn''t speak, but looked up and down at Chu Zixiao with sharp eyes It''s not the imagined suit, but the slightly casual dress did not reduce his momentum in this man. He looks good. Under his sight, he doesn''t push or feel nervous at all. It doesn''t seem to be a small role. Such people are either the fried dough sticks in society, or they are really people who stand tall from small to large. "Listen and read, are you a lawyer?" Zhang Zhengtang didn''t let Chu Zixiao sit down, but asked in a low voice. Chu Zixiao said faintly, "yes!" "Do you like my daughter?" Zhang Zhengtang looked at Chu Zixiao with sharp eyes and couldn''t let go of his expression. Unfortunately, Chu Zixiao didn''t have too many expressions on his face, but he was light. "I don''t know what uncle said like. What''s the definition?" "It''s very simple, just to get married!" "Marriage is like?" Chu Zixiao looked down with a smile, "I thought it was hand in hand for a lifetime..." "..." Zhang Zhengtang immediately sank his eyes. "He is worthy of being a lawyer and has a sharp mouth." Chu Zixiao smiled politely, "thank you, uncle!" Zhang Zhengtang smiled at the corners of his mouth. However, when there was no temperature at all, he was also very unfriendly. This man, a lawyer, not only has a powerful mouth, but even his mind turns very fast. It seems to be answering his questions, but all the Taiji playing has been superficial... If you don''t pay attention, you think he''s talking, and you''ll want to spend your life with Niannian! Zhang Nian nervously kept poking at the corners of her lips for fear that Chu Zixiao would get angry and leave... From time to time, she peeked at the people on the side and kept asking for Yang Yi''s help. Unfortunately, Yang Yi obviously doesn''t intend to help her. "Sit down!" Zhang Zhengtang finally let Chu Zixiao sit down under Zhang Nian''s constant uneasiness. Chu Zixiao was calm from beginning to end. "Thank you, uncle." Zhang Nian breathed a sigh of relief. Just sitting down, Zhang Zhengtang said a word. Shy, she almost didn''t find a crack to get in "Have you ever slept with Niannian?" Chapter 906 Zhang Nian suddenly widened his eyes, "Dad!" "What does uncle think of premarital sex?" Chu Zixiao was flattered, but his eyes also became deep and asked slowly, "or what does uncle think of men''s self-control in that regard?" Zhang Zhengtang frowned. Chu Zixiao threw the problem to him again?! How he seemed to answer became inappropriate in front of reading. Because, is not a man''s point of view, there is also a father''s responsibility! Zhang Zhengtang smiled with deep meaning. His fingers, which had shown some traces of years, knocked gently on the table. Zhang Nian was worried and wanted to say something. However, he was afraid of angering Zhang Zhengtang. He could only look at Yang Yi wrongly, and the corners of his mouth kept moving. "What does Zixiao like to drink?" Yang Yi couldn''t bear her daughter''s suffering. She opened her mouth and broke the atmosphere under the stalemate. Chu Zixiao looked sideways at Yang Yi, with a gentle smile in his mouth and said, "aunt, I''ll have tea." Then, without politeness, he got up and took the tea on the table However, he politely added tea to Zhang Zhengtang and Yang Yi before moving to his position. "Don''t go back to work for 36 hours in the evening. Don''t go back to work tomorrow morning." Chu Zixiao''s voice is tender and considerate. It''s neither light nor heavy. People can''t feel whether it''s true or false. It seems that there are both, depending on what you think. "Yes, if you don''t say it, I''ll soon forget that I want to be even on duty..." Zhang Nian suddenly stood up. "Dad, mom, Zixiao and I won''t accompany you first. He also has a case to deal with tomorrow." Chu Zixiao''s eyes flashed a smile. Zhang Nian looked like he was afraid that his boyfriend would be embarrassed by his parents. Although, she does think so! Before Zhang Zhengtang spoke, Yang Yi said with a smile, "women don''t want to stay..." and then got up, "your father and I will stay in Los Angeles for a few days. Let''s have dinner together later!" It''s a question, but obviously, it can''t be rejected. Zhang Nian grinned secretly. He just wanted to say that Chu Zixiao has a case in another place these days. It is estimated that there is a time conflict, so he heard Chu Zixiao answer "Uncle and aunt should come." Chu Zixiao said calmly, "when Xiaonian is finished, I''ll make an appointment to be the host. I hope uncle and aunt don''t dislike it." Zhang Nian''s heart suddenly tightened and subconsciously looked at Chu Zixiao He called her "Xiao Nian"! Although he knew that he was acting at the moment, Zhang Nian''s heart seemed to be blooming with gorgeous flowers... He couldn''t help but overflow a faint blush on his cheeks. Compared with Zhang Nian''s pinching, Zhang Zhengtang just smiled, but there was not much temperature. Yang Yi looked like a loving mother and nodded with a smile. "Uncle and aunt, then Xiaonian and I will go first..." Chu Zixiao said, looking at Zhang Zhengtang. Zhang Nianzhe looked at Zhang Zhengtang and Yang Yi and said, "Dad, mom, let''s go..." Said, no matter whether they had words or not, they dragged Chu Zixiao out of the box. "This child, do we eat her boyfriend?" Yang Yi sat down with a dissatisfied face. Zhang Zhengtang just sneered, "boyfriend?" He hissed, "I think the falling flowers are deliberately ruthless." Yang Yi stared at Zhang Zhengtang, but she didn''t refute it. They are all from the past. Besides, both of them have a lot of experience. They are still very accurate in looking at people. "It can be seen that the girl likes him very much..." Yang Yi sighed heavily. "I thought she wanted to be a nurse just for fun. Now it''s OK. A man is dragging again. I''m afraid it''s difficult to go home." Zhang Zhengtang didn''t speak, but his hand still knocked on the table. "You''re going to say something..." Yang Yi was dissatisfied when she saw that he didn''t speak. "Hum." Zhang Zhengtang sneered. Under his sharp eyes, there was a sharp look of horror. "The person my daughter likes can only be with my daughter!" Yang Yi didn''t say anything, just got up and went to the window From the perspective of this box, you can just see Chu Zixiao and Zhang Nian standing on the roadside waiting for the bus. "I''m very satisfied with this man..." Yang Yi said. "It''s good to deal with those people in the family, whether it''s his appearance or the dialogue with you just now, and I won''t let Niannian suffer." Looking at the two people getting on the bus, Yang Yi frowned slightly, "but I''m afraid this man can''t hold it." Zhang Zhengtang snorted coldly and didn''t speak. He just got up and walked out, "wait until you get back to dinner." "Yes." Yang Yi answered and left the box with Zhang Zhengtang. ¡­¡­ "Well, thank you tonight..." Zhang Nian said with some hesitation, "I''ll tell you later that you have an urgent case on business, so..." Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian, but at a glance, he coldly converged his sight, "it doesn''t hurt." Zhang Nianzhe lowered his lower lip. Seeing that Chu Zixiao didn''t intend to continue to discuss this matter, he sat down quietly and didn''t speak. The car finally stopped at the door of the community where Zhang Nian rented, "I, I''ll go first..." she looked at Chu Zixiao timidly, and the corners of her lips moved back and forth. What else did she want to say, but she finally held back. Chu Zixiao didn''t say anything. He just opened his mouth indifferently after watching Zhang Nian enter the community: "go to Yudu apartment." "OK." The driver answered and started the car to Yudu apartment. Chu Zixiao subconsciously glanced at Zhang Nian''s community, and his eyes gradually became deep He felt that Zhang Nian''s parents would not be ordinary people. Besides, the people who live and eat in Feitian hotel are definitely not ordinary well-off families. Chu Zixiao took back his sight indifferently. For a moment, a deep emotion crossed his eyes. Who are Zhang Nian''s parents and what does it have to do with him? Chu Zixiao secretly laughed at himself and restrained his mind However, he didn''t think of it at the moment. Because he didn''t think much, he fell into the trap of Zhang Zhengtang. On Sunday, the sun came early in the morning with the smell of spring. At the weekend, unless it''s an emergency, Gu Beichen usually doesn''t go to the company now. All his time is spent with Jian Jie. "You''re busy and don''t have to accompany us..." Jane Mo said after Gu Beichen hung up the phone. Gu Beichen looked at the upstairs, "I have lost more than four years with Xiaojie. I don''t want to spend the next days. Because of his busy work, he didn''t have me in his childhood." No one knows better than him that there is no parent''s company in childhood. No matter how much material and other people''s care and love, there is no way to make up for that regret. Chapter 907 Jane Mo came forward, put her arms around Gu Beichen''s strong waist, put her cheeks on his chest, felt his strong heartbeat, and said with a smile: "then don''t we take milk bags when we travel?" "It''s not a holiday..." Gu Beichen said solemnly and slightly raised his eyebrows. "Well, he needs to learn." "Look at you, Mr. Beichen, really?" Gu Beichen leaned over and kissed Jian Mo at the corner of his mouth. "Mo''er, as a father, I accompany Xiao Jie because I want to watch him grow." His voice was low and magnetic, "but it''s fun to be a husband to complete your dream with you." "Sweet..." Jane Mo smiled, and the smile on her face was sweet and boring. But Gu Beichen liked it. He took her hand and walked out of the bedroom. "If there is no accident, we can go at the end of the month." "Everything has been arranged for the company?" Jane Mo is light. "Well," Gu Beichen answered, "there is Xiao Jing." "I think it''s better to appoint Xiao Jing as CEO..." Jane Mo joked. Gu Beichen glanced at her. "That''s what Xiao Jing said." Jane Mo was stunned and burst into laughter. "Ah Chen, if I were Xiao Jing, I would quit..." Jian Mo said with a little schadenfreude. "You said, why was he so squeezed by you and followed you with all his heart?" Gu Beichen chuckled and said, "because his heart is soft." "Huh?" Jane Mo didn''t understand what she meant. Gu Beichen just smiled and didn''t explain Maybe we should take Mo''er to see where he lives in England this time. That''s also his past. He wants Mo''er to participate in his whole life At that time, Mo''er would understand why Xiao Jing would follow him with such determination?! In fact, money, no matter to him or Xiao Jing, has never been the basis of measuring the relationship. He can safely hand over the whole emperor to Xiao Jing because he knows that Xiao Jing''s affection for his brothers is more important than these things outside his body. He and Xiao Jing are not at the first command of the Dragon boss... But the sincere cooperation over the years, whether emperor or in private. "Daddy, Mommy, it''s all ready." When Jian Jie saw Gu Beichen coming out, he took his sunglasses and put them on one side. The handsome appearance made Jian Mo feel that how could she give birth to a child as evil as a milk bag?! Ha ha Well, she''s narcissistic. Jian Jie knew what she was thinking when she saw Jian Mo''s appearance. She said ruthlessly, "Mommy, I have good genes because Daddy has good genes, okay? Don''t feel great all day!" He tilted his lips, looked at Jane''s gnashing teeth and decided to get on the bus first. "It''s all right. You''re really great!" Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo''s shoulder, "because the best thing for you is to choose me." Jane Mo immediately bared her teeth, "your son said that my smartest thing is to give birth to him..." "And then?" Gu Beichen decided to play dumb. "Then?" Jane Mo pretended to smile, slightly deviated from her body, and left Gu Beichen. "Of course, it''s the giant ship of love. Turn it when you say it!" Gu Beichen immediately laughed, "it''s all right. I''m good at swimming. There''s no problem taking you ashore." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and got on the bus. The family''s weekend activities are full. Yesterday we went fishing, today''s activity is to climb the mountain, and then in the afternoon we went to eat the ice cream cake that Jane Jie really wants to eat By the time she got to the ice cream shop, Jane Mo was tired and paralyzed. "Mommy, you are so weak." Jane Jie hates it very much. Jane Mo is too lazy to quarrel with Jane Jie. She just looks at Gu Beichen who bought an ice cream cake. "How does J feel so busy these two days?" "Didn''t you say he was obsessed with CS?" Gu Beichen asked indifferently and didn''t tell her about ye Chenyu''s mobile phone information recovery. Jane Mo frowned, "that doesn''t mean I can''t see people when I get up in the morning..." Jian Jie fanned his eyes and dug a spoonful of ice cream cake into his mouth like a child. "Well, I haven''t seen J for two days!" "I''ll talk to him in the evening..." Gu Beichen put a cake in front of Jian Mo, "just in time to talk about enrollment." When it comes to enrollment, Jian Mo''s thoughts were immediately taken by Gu Beichen The data in Ye Chenyu''s mobile phone needs to be restored. The program comes with a destruction Trojan horse. J rarely feels tricky this time. I didn''t expect it to be so complicated, but there is no recovery procedure for two days Just thinking, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone vibrated. He picked it up, looked at it and answered, "huh?" "Mr. Gu, Mr. Ye woke up..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes suddenly gathered, "I''ll wait." "OK!" Gu Beichen hung up, "the friend who had an accident woke up. I''ll go and have a look..." "Then go!" Jane Mo nodded hurriedly. With a cake in her mouth, she talked a little bluntly, "I''ll send the milk bag to school, and then I''ll call you again." "OK." Gu Beichen answered, looked at Jian Jie and said, "Daddy will pick you up next weekend, huh?" "Yes!" Jane Jie nodded cleverly, "Daddy, drive carefully!" "Good......" Gu Beichen gently rubbed his son''s head, got up and left first. Jian Mo subconsciously glanced out of the window and watched Gu Beichen walk towards the car with steady steps When he opened the door, he looked back as if he felt something. He looked through the clean glass window and looked at Jane Mo together. Then they looked at each other and smiled. Then he restrained his eyes and got on the car. A crisp sound of "Dang" came. While Jane Mo regained her consciousness, Jane Jie blinked and looked at her "Hey, Mommy, why did the ring slip down?" Jane Mo looked at the blue diamond ring falling on the cake plate, and suddenly some faint impetuosity came from her heart. This ring fits the size of your finger very well. Except for being pulled out, you''ve never fallen off by yourself Jane moju lowered the corner of her mouth, picked up the dining paper, wiped off the cream on the ring, and put it back on her fingers... As far as she could see, when she saw the small tattoo, the impetuosity that had just suddenly risen gradually calmed down. Jian Mo and Jian Jie left half an hour after Gu Beichen left. They stood by the roadside waiting for the car, but they couldn''t wait for a long time. "Mommy, shall we take the bus over there?" Jian Jie pointed to the opposite side and asked, "I haven''t taken the bus for a long time!" "Good!" Jane Mo said, no matter whether Jane Jie wanted it or not, he took his little hand and walked forward to the zebra crossing. Jian Jie didn''t break free either. He didn''t want to be led, but he thought. If it was Xiao Yan, maybe he wanted to be led by mommy?! Cheng Qing watched Jian Mo and Jian Jie go forward, started the express car, looked at the depths of their line of sight, filled with fierce excitement. The madness under the blood was shrouded in the murderous spirit under the metamorphosis. "Mommy, let''s go. There are twenty seconds left..." Jane Jie dragged Jane Mo and ran across the road. Jian Mo subconsciously trots with Jian Jie Suddenly, I don''t know who screamed, and then the crazy engine roared. Jane Mo instinctively looked to one side and saw an express car speeding towards the sidewalk like crazy Chapter 908 Gu Beichen arrived at the hospital. Ye Chenyu did wake up, but he was still very weak. "Wake up very fast..." Gu Beichen obviously had a smile in his tone. "I thought it would take a few days!" Ye Chenyu pulled hard at the corners of his mouth. His face was swollen with bumps. "How can I be... So weak?" Whether in the police academy, or out of undercover for so many years, there are still few bumps? To put it mildly, to be an undercover, we should not only fight against the temptation of pleasure, but also the exciting life of joking with life anytime and anywhere. "Does mom know?" What did ye Chenyu think of and asked. "I press the news character..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth faintly, pulled aside the chair and sat down by the hospital bed. "It''s normal for you to have no news for three days or two anyway." "Thanks!" Ye Chenyu said casually, but there was no real meaning to thank. "No accident, the data you transmitted in the past two days can be recovered..." Gu Beichen said slowly, "however, it is still unknown whether you can recover it all." After a pause, he continued: "I saw you online in the hospital in the car accident that day... I checked your identity these two days. After all, if the data is really restored and if it is a infernal affair, you will not be able to go back to the police station in your life. I''m afraid you have no foothold on the road." No one knows all the police information of the undercover except online. If something goes wrong on the line, even if Gu Beichen can connect to the sky in Los Angeles, ye Chenyu''s identity cannot be restored normally Ye Chenyu noticed that his face didn''t matter. "It''s all right. Isn''t there still you?" He raised his eyebrows, but he pulled the wound. He bared his teeth in pain and said with an evil smile: "it''s OK to be a driver and bodyguard for you later!" "I don''t want to..." Gu Beichen sneered. Ye Chenyu grinned. He just wanted to talk about something. Suddenly his mind stopped. "By the way," Ye Chenyu glanced at Gu Beichen, "I called you that day... I remembered something!" "Huh?" Ye Chenyu frowned and roughly talked about the courier, "whether it''s money or anything, I think you''d better investigate. Don''t look back. There''s a problem. It''s too passive." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered and took out his mobile phone. "Don''t be so anxious..." Ye Chenyu joked. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. He didn''t know why. Suddenly, there was a kind of uneasiness. He didn''t know whether it was because of Ye Chenyu''s words or the sense of danger under the instinct of the unknown. He opened the mobile phone screen and quickly dialed Jane Mo''s phone "Bang!" "Oh!" "Mommy..." "Ah --" "Hiss -" The voice mixed with many emotions suddenly rang on the road. For a moment, everyone''s thoughts seemed to be frozen. Jian Jie was pushed forward by Jian Mo at the last moment and fell on the ground. His eyelids were drooping, his little hands were rubbed and broken, and the bright red blood marks on his face and hands were particularly shocking. Jian Mo flies high like a kite with a broken line At the right time, the mobile phone in the bag flying together came a pleasant piano music. That''s the song played by Su Junli when Gu Beichen and Jian Mo danced Tango in Los Angeles square Full of beautiful yearning for love and accompanying each other hand in hand, the memory tells endless romantic feelings. At this moment, time seems to have passed through all. Jian Mo seems to be able to hear the ring of the mobile phone. She looks at the blue sky, cloudless, as if she had been washed by water. "I lack an obedient wife..." "I''m short of money!" "Jane Mo, there are some things I can, you can''t... understand?" "If you don''t want to move, don''t move... We''ll go back to lanze garden tonight!" "Jane Mo, you are so selfish..." "Good morning, husband!" "Jane Mo, there is someone in my heart. She is the only person I want to love in my life. Let''s divorce!" "I said the one who wants the only love is you..." "Mo''er, did I tell you I love you? I really love you..." "I''m right behind you. I''m tired... Lean back directly!" "Mo''er, you have married me, so now... I just want to ask you, are you willing to live this life with me?" "Gobi loves wild lilies, which symbolizes pure love and is also the most enthusiastic..." "Husband, love you... Is the most correct decision I have made in my life!" "Mo''er, wait for me to pick you up!" "Mo''er..." "Bang!" "Bang!" Two sounds at the same time The express car hit a viaduct support column on one side, and Jian Mo''s body fell to the ground. Until that moment, in Jian Mo''s weak vision, it seemed that there was only pure blue sky The last moment in my mind was the wedding full of Gobi Aiye lilies. Finally, he took her to Shi Shaoqin She turned around and kissed him deeply. He asked her to wait for him to pick her up It turns out that fast memory is like this. It''s so beautiful that people seem to feel that time is not enough at all, even if the memory is so fast. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo flapped her lower eyelids weakly, and the corners of her mouth moved back and forth, sending out two silent words. The finger with the ring moved. Jian Mo looked at Jian Jie lying on the ground weakly, and her eyes were filled with the last despair of life. There was a sound of exclamation and backsuction in my ears. Even, everyone forgot to respond. It''s only a one-way street here, except for the bus However, at this moment, all the cars forgot the red and green lights, but still stopped there. The bus driver tried to move forward and operate normally, but he was blocked by the gathered people. "Call the police..." "I called an ambulance!" In the crowd, there was a cry of surprise, and suddenly, there were noisy voices everywhere. "God, it looks like Jane Mo?" "No?" Someone was surprised and stunned, "isn''t that child Gu Yan?" "It''s really Jane Mo!" Someone has called up the news about Jane Mo on the Internet, "why do I think there will be a bloody storm in Los Angeles?" A joke that seemed irrelevant made everyone look at each other. Anyone who cares about the news knows that in fact, it has been less than a year. The ups and downs between Gu Beichen and Jian mo "Alas..." in the crowd, someone sighed, "I think Jane Mo is blessed and has no life to enjoy." "I don''t know what happened. I shed so much blood..." "Do you want to call Chen Shao?" "Do you have Gu Beichen''s number?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Jian Mo''s last vain sight gradually lost focus under the voice of the crowd Her pupils began to relax gradually, turning the last light into darkness Chapter 909 The phone rang until there was no ring and no one answered. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and pressed the replay button... But no one answered! Jane Mo''s mobile phone is in the bag. In the noisy environment, no one hears the mobile phone ringing "What''s the matter?" Ye Chenyu felt the invisible overflow breath on Gu Beichen and frowned slightly. Gu Beichen subconsciously pressed the replay again, "Mo''er doesn''t answer the phone..." "Did you hear that?" Gu Beichen frowned a little tighter and dialed Jian Jie''s cell phone, but no one answered. At the same time, Jian Jie''s mobile phone is in the back seat of Gu Beichen''s car, and the screen is dim "No one answered?" Ye Chenyu also frowned. Gu Beichen suddenly got up and walked out without even saying anything While walking, he dialed Jane Mo''s cell phone again. This time, someone picked it up "Mo''er?" "President Gu?" Both sides spoke almost simultaneously. Hearing the voice of a strange man, Gu Beichen immediately frowned, "excuse me, are you..." "Mr. Gu, I''m a passer-by..." the man''s tone was obviously a little nervous under invisible pressure, "that... Your wife and child... Had a car accident..." With a bang, Gu Beichen only felt that something in his head exploded, making him lose his thinking and calmness. He didn''t hear what was said on the other end of the mobile phone, but felt that his mind was blank. After several seconds, Gu Beichen closed his eyes. When he opened them, the ink pupil was already scarlet, "where is it?" "It''s at the East Second Ring Viaduct," the man said hurriedly. "I''ve called an ambulance..." The man said that the siren of the ambulance could be vaguely heard in the mobile phone. "Send it directly to Huakang!" Gu Beichen almost clenched his teeth to say these words calmly. As soon as he hung up the phone, he hurried into the car and sped to Huakang The police car and ambulance arrived almost at the same time. The ambulance personnel first made a preliminary inspection of Jian Mo and Jian Jie, and the traffic police handled the express car. Both sides carried out their own affairs in an orderly manner, and the crowd of onlookers did not disperse. The front face of the express car has been deformed. Cheng Qing''s forehead is bleeding because he hit the windshield The doctor also gave him a preliminary examination. Outwardly, he was ok, but he still needed to be taken to the hospital for examination. Cheng Qing watched the doctor get Jian Mo and Jian Jie to the simple hospital bed respectively, and a strange and bloodthirsty smile overflowed from the corners of his mouth. Even, because of the winding blood on his forehead, his eyes were full of blood light, which made people feel cold on the soles of his feet. "It seems that he hit it on purpose just now..." "I didn''t notice. When I heard the sound, it was already the crime scene." "It was a pedestrian signal light at that time. Shouldn''t the express car slow down and stop? It hit so fast and straight... It must have been intentional." "Can''t there be hatred?" "I don''t know whether it''s Gu Beichen or Jian Mo......" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The crowd whispered. After knowing the situation a little, the traffic police signaled everyone to disperse and not to continue to encircle and affect the traffic. At the same time, they called the monitoring system to call out the monitoring video of this section. In any case, if Jian Mo really has a chance, let alone what means Gu Beichen will have, that is, if he doesn''t investigate, the criminal responsibility of the driver can''t escape. The ambulance soon sent Jian Mo and Jian Jie to Huakang hospital, which is not far from Huakang, and the best hospital is also Huakang! As soon as Jian Mo and Jian Jie were sent in, Li Yunze got the news. "Inform the attending doctors of all departments to enter the operating room together..." Li Yunze looked cold and looked at his left hand. After recovery, although it is almost good, Li Yunze knows very well that he can''t fully guarantee that there is no deviation in minimally invasive surgery. "Li Shao, are you going into the operating room?" The nurse asked hurriedly. "I can''t get in from the monitoring!" "OK!" The nurse hurried to arrange. Jian Mo was pushed directly into the operating room, and Jian Jie was pushed into the examination room. According to preliminary observation, Jian Jie just suffered a slight collision and fainted when he was pushed away. There should be no big problem. Of course, you have to go through a general examination to know the results But Jian Mo''s injury is not optimistic! The sound of "pedaling" footsteps came in a hurry. Li Yunze looked sideways and saw that Gu Beichen was covered with anger, but for a moment, it filled the whole corridor. "What''s going on?!" Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and asked, completely ignoring the traffic police and others who accompanied him, but looking at Li Yunze with a fierce light like a beast. Li Yunze''s face was dignified, "Xiao Jie is OK, Jian Mo is not very optimistic..." Gu Beichen closed his eyes and opened them. At the moment, the bloodthirsty clenched his teeth and asked, "who One word, Li Yunze saw his murderous spirit. "Beichen, calm down..." Li Yunze said in a deep voice. No matter how many things they do secretly, but on the face of it, there is nothing they have to do. The world, especially the political and legal organs, may allow you to hide behind the scenes... But you are absolutely not allowed to challenge the dignity you can''t touch. "Calm down?" Gu Beichen laughed at himself and then roared, "my wife and son are lying inside... You calm me down?! how do you calm me down?" The people in the corridor swallowed one by one, and the traffic police dared not come forward to "understand the situation". In their cognition, no matter when the emperor changes, or the case of Jian Zhanfeng falling from a building some time ago... Gu Beichen, a man, is so cold that people feel that killing is invisible. But at this moment, he was like crazy. In an instant, he could step on his minefield Everyone has a consciousness at this moment. That is, if Jane has three long and two short, this man will be completely crazy and let the world and himself be buried with him! The news of Los Angeles spread quickly because it was Jian Mo and Gu Yan who had a car accident, just like locusts crossing the border. Some people are sob, some people are watching coldly, some people worry, naturally... There are also make complaints about the vomit. "Yunze..." Gu Beichen sat powerlessly in his chair and lost his arrogance, as if he were about to be evacuated, "if..." He didn''t go on, he was afraid to think! Li Yunze looked at his brother. He wanted to tell him: it will be fine. However, as a doctor, Jane Mo''s situation... Is really not optimistic! He can''t comfort Beichen like this. If there is a chance, he is afraid of Beichen. Because of his comfort, he can''t stand it completely. Time is never too long Just an hour, as long as a century. Such suffering made Gu Beichen feel that it was longer than three months in the ink palace Chapter 910 When Xiao Jing and j came to the hospital panting, the whole corridor was filled with airflow that could kill people. He stopped a little and looked at Gu Beichen sitting there. For a moment, it seemed as if he had returned to the time when he first saw the man. He was sitting on the floor of Lizzie''s clinic. He was in a terrible fight with a small man all over The doctor wanted to examine his wound, but he kept away. Brother Xiao happened to be out of London at that time, so he let him pass He thought it should be a scene of tension, but it was strange. When he arrived, Chen Shao seemed to have lost his soul traction and wanted to find salvation. However, the fallen leaves have fallen. It''s like this moment... Suddenly lost direction! It was a terrible thing, more terrible than when he first saw Chen Shao. "You asked me to help you," J suddenly rushed up and grabbed Gu Beichen''s collar and roared, "I help you day and night, but how do you take care of Jian Mo and Xiao Jie?!" Gu Beichen looked up slightly and lost his arrogance in the world. Some were just self denial under confusion. J didn''t care. Seeing Gu Beichen ignoring him, he kept shaking, "Gu Beichen, if they have anything, I won''t forgive you!" "Qin Shao shouldn''t have let her leave..." J''s eyes have become scarlet. He let go of Gu Beichen, and a layer of angry water mist filled his eyes. Everyone didn''t move. Li Yunze frowned slightly and looked at Gu Beichen, worried at the bottom of his eyes. Xiao Jing''s heart suddenly stung because he knew the man and accompanied him through ups and downs... He knew better than anyone how bad Gu Beichen was at the moment. Outsiders watched the scene nervously. No one knew who Qin Shao was?! No one knows J''s identity, but feels that if he can talk to Gu Beichen like this, he must have a very close relationship with Jian mo. Li Yunze came forward, looked at Beichen solemnly and opened J. "no one is more painful than him at the moment," his voice was a little heavy, "you are angry and worried, he wants to die, you know?" J glared at Li Yunze. "I don''t care what he thinks. All I know is that he didn''t take good care of Jian Mo and Xiao Jie!" Li Yunze frowned and decided to ignore the child. Children''s emotions are too direct, which will only add fuel to the fire at the moment. "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing sat down beside Gu Beichen, "the data has been restored." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly. Xiao Jing looked at him. After a while, he said, "everything will pass..." "I, I can control." Gu Beichen looked down slightly and looked at Xiao Jing, "but she, I can''t... Xiao Jing, I think I''m a failure!" "No one can control everything." Xiao Jing looked back at the white wall ahead. At this moment, he was not the exquisite Xiao Jing, nor Gu Beichen, who often lamented that his year-end bonus was withheld. He was just a friend and a brother who walked through the storm together. "Since I can remember, this is the most understandable truth..." Xiao Jing''s voice is a little distant. "Later, I followed Lord Xiao and was rationed to brother Xiao. I have seen through it many times." "Can you really see through now?" Gu Beichen sneered. "Can''t..." Xiao Jing lay back in his seat, looking at the incandescent lamp with a little empty eyes, "because no one can be really cold-blooded." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "Are you sure you''re comforting me?" "When did I say I wanted to comfort you?" Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously. "It''s still as annoying as the first sight..." Gu Beichen withdrew his eyes coldly, and his cold face was covered with a gloomy haze. Xiao Jing pulled the corners of his mouth, but he couldn''t laugh. If only it could be the same as the first time I saw you At least, Chen Shao is still unwilling and has bath hope. But If Mrs. Shao has a chance, he''s really afraid that this man can''t hold on! Time, little by little, Jian Jie came out quickly Because he was pushed out by Jian Mo in time, he was only scratched on the surface of his skin, and he had a slight concussion because his head hit the asphalt road. There was no big deal. However, Jane Mo''s operation has been going on. Such a passage of time is a torment for everyone, especially Gu Beichen. Li Yunze is already in the operating monitoring room. In the operating room, there are top doctors in various departments of Huakang... Each one can handle the operation independently and quickly. However, at this moment, everyone''s forehead overflowed with fine sweat. "The patient''s heart stops beating..." "Prepare for electric shock!" "The patient''s heartbeat recovers, but it can''t support the operation..." "There are ribs inserted into the heart, which is the hardest!" The first surgeon''s voice fell solemnly, and the doctors in the operating room looked at each other one by one. This kind of operation, want to achieve the best operation effect without fail, the whole hospital, in addition to Li Yunze, don''t do two people want to. However, although his left hand is recovering, it can be operated on... Obviously, we can''t guarantee it. Someone raised his sight slightly, looked at Li Yunze standing in the operating observation room, and then took back his sight. "Do you want to ask Li Shao?" The first surgeon looks dignified. He is really not sure of such an operation. The surgeon motioned to the nurse, "I want to talk to Li Shao." The phone soon reached the observation room. Li Yunze didn''t leave the operating table and indifferently picked up the landline The chief surgeon said the current situation and said, "Li Shao, we hope you will be the chief surgeon for this operation." Li Yunze was silent. He didn''t need their phone. He also knew the progress of the operation and what they were thinking. Without speaking, he hung up the phone and turned to the observation room The doctors listened to the hang up tone one by one and looked at each other blankly. They didn''t know what the situation was. The operation continued and was not interrupted by the call or discussion. No one knows what Li Yunze is thinking. Whether he participates or not, in fact, it is very dangerous Moreover, for any operation itself, each has a risk factor. Li Yunze went out of the observation room, and Gu Beichen''s line of sight looked over in an instant. "Where''s it going?" Gu Beichen asked in a voice full of vicissitudes. "Thirty percent!" Li Yunze spoke faintly. Although only the last rib inserted into the heart, it is the most complex and difficult in the whole operation. Gu Beichen closed his eyes and tried to endure the manic breath. "Beichen..." Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen and asked when he opened his eyes. "Do you believe me?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer immediately, because Jian Mo was involved, he couldn''t make a calm judgment as soon as possible. Li Yunze''s hand was injured before. He knows very well if he can have an operation However, he asked, indicating that he had a reason why he couldn''t do the next operation. Everyone looked at Gu Beichen, including Gu Moyuan and his family, Chu Zixiao, Mo Shaochen, Su Junli and Shen Chu. "Yunze," Li Jiyuan looked at Li Yunze with a dignified face, "you..." "Dad," Li Jinxi shouted, interrupting Li Jiyuan''s words, "Yunze has several." Li Yunze waited. Looking at the whole city of Los Angeles, no one is more sure of cardiothoracic surgery than him. However, leaving aside his hand, the people inside are not only her own life, but also Beichen! "I believe you!" Chapter 911 Three words, without any modification, or even superfluous emotions. Li Yunze nodded slightly, didn''t say anything, just patted Gu Beichen on the shoulder, and then turned into the operating room. Disinfect, wear surgical clothes and walk to the first main knife position For Li Yunze, all the procedures have realized that he doesn''t need any thoughts, but all by instinct. "Take over the main knife..." Li Yunze''s voice was steady, "the patient''s heart rate and blood pressure!" He asked, looking sideways at the body cavity detector and listening to the report from the instrument monitoring nurse. "The operation continues!" Li Yunze took back his sight on the instrument and spread his hand, "No. 3 scalpel..." Fortunately, his right hand was not injured, but his left hand did not achieve complete flexibility, and heart surgery was a very subtle process. "Dr. Wang, if necessary, you act as my left hand. Is there a problem?" Li Yunze asked without stopping. Dr. Wang nodded, "yes!" Li Yunze''s left hand can''t support the completion of the whole double operation without interruption In the operating room, under a dignified air pressure, Li Yunze steadily continued the operation. More and more people piled up outside the operating room. The traffic police who came to understand the situation looked at the people of the day in Los Angeles, who filled the corridor and grinned secretly. "What about the driver who caused the accident?" Chu Zixiao asked. "Although the vehicle was seriously damaged, the person was ok..." the traffic policeman swallowed involuntarily, "it''s just that the person seems to have some mental problems." The implication is that if mental problems are really identified, the final result must be sent to a mental hospital. "Want to escape criminal responsibility?" Chu Zixiao heard a light sigh, and then he hummed coldly. A smile without temperature overflowed from the corners of his mouth. The traffic policeman pulled the corners of his mouth and didn''t know what to say. There were two famous criminal arguments standing here. I''m afraid the driver who caused the accident will come to no good end Moreover, from the surveillance video, the driver who caused the accident did intend to hit Jian Mo and Gu Yan. Time is crawling like a snail. Even Gu Beichen knows that no matter how anxious he is to wait, time gives him the same suffering. "Beichen, drink some water first!" CEN Lanxi sat down and handed the water. Gu Beichen drank mechanically, mixed with the sweet smell in his mouth, and was swallowed with a rusty smell CEN Lanxi looked at her son painfully and lived most of her life. It was the first time she saw her son so helpless. "Jian Mo will be all right..." Cen Lanxi''s eyes are a little red, "it will be all right!" Gu Beichen still didn''t speak, but hung his eyes and waited. With the passage of time, the atmosphere became more and more tense and dignified. Because a Gu Beichen, because the person inside is Jian Mo, whether he or she, affects all the people here. Suddenly The door of the operation is opened! Everyone''s eyes'' brushed ''one time, and even Gu Beichen suddenly got up nervously, with a trace of fear under resistance in the bottom of his eyes. "Nurse Li Chen hurried to the operating room," Gu Shao said "What''s going on?" Su Junli asked nervously. The nurse quickly replied, "the patient''s life body has dropped sharply." At the same time, she had hurriedly turned into the operating room with Gu Beichen. "What does life mean by a sharp decline?" J looked at the crowd in a daze. Everyone''s faces became more and more dignified. Finally, Xiao Jing explained, "Madam Shao has no sense of survival..." Gu Beichen quickly but carefully disinfected the poison. After the nurse put on disinfection clothes for him, they both entered the operating room. Everyone looked at it. Li Yunze just glanced at it and calmly said, "the fourth Deputy moved his position." "Yes!" The fourth Deputy doctor moved out of the position where Gu Beichen could stand. Gu Beichen watched Jian Mo''s chest open, which became a frightening scale. He could see her internal organs most intuitively "Me, what do I need to do?" Gu Beichen asked nervously, completely losing his cool decision. Li Yunze glanced at him, "you just need to let her know that you are by her side and let her have the idea of wanting to survive!" In a word, he knew very well, and Beichen understood what he meant. The operation continued. Gu Beichen squatted down slowly. His big palm gently held Jian Mo''s cold hand and watched her lose her blood color and pale as paper "Mo''er," Gu Beichen said softly, and his nose became sour in an instant. "I''m here, I''m by your side... Please work hard for me, okay?" The soft voice, with the persistence of sadness, is low, but sour in the operating room, everyone''s heart. "You said you would say good night to me every day," Gu Beichen said softly. "When you get up every morning, you should also say good morning to me... You said you would work hard for me, but you can''t do such a simple thing." Li Yunze''s hand paused slightly. He took a deep breath, restrained his mind, and began to concentrate on continuing the operation Gu Beichen talked about the little things between him and Jian Mo in this way. The nurses had red eyes one by one, and even some people began to cry silently. No one has really seen Gu Beichen''s vulnerability. It seems that if Jian Mo leaves on this operating table, he will leave together The nurse watching the monitoring instrument cried and looked anxiously at the heart rate. However, there were not too many fluctuating lines, and there was a smell of death all the time. Li Yunze''s forehead was already covered with sweat, and Gu Beichen''s love words to Jian mo were in his ears. Every sentence was the heart of their hearts that they had experienced so much and opened their hearts to each other. "Mo''er, will you be willing to leave me?" Gu Beichen''s voice was full of self mockery, "and Xiaojie!" His eyes were red and even misty. Gu Beichen knows very well that Jian Mo has not been aroused to survive at this time. "Mo''er," Gu Beichen suddenly clenched his teeth, "when you lost Xiao Yan, it was so painful. Do you have the heart to let me and Xiao Jie bear the pain of losing you?" Tears overflowed from the corners of Gu Beichen''s eyes, his lips trembled constantly, and even his hand holding Jian Mo trembled constantly. Here, no one knows better than Li Yunze. It''s more cruel for him to stimulate Jane at this time. Gu Moruo is more cruel to him! Jian Mocai came out of the depression of losing Xiao Yan, which is still untouchable pain However, Beichen has no way! He wants Jane to live! If the patient doesn''t have the slightest desire to survive on the operating table, such a complex and dangerous operation can''t last at all "The patient''s heart rate began to rise..." When the atmosphere became more dignified and sad, suddenly, the nurse guarding the monitoring instrument cried and laughed. Chapter 912 "I don''t know what''s going on?" CEN Lanxi whispered anxiously. Gu Ci and Gu Nanyi accompanied Cen Lanxi. They both looked at each other and didn''t speak. At this moment, no one can comfort anyone. There is a dignified atmosphere in the whole corridor. Luo Xiaomi''s crying eyes are swollen, but the tears are still flowing uncontrollably, "my little uncle and aunt are so in love, why torture them like this?" She looked at Gu Nanyi with a sob and continued to sit on the ground and cry silently. J hung his head and kept kicking his feet on the ground. His thin figure seemed to be shrouded by something, with a loss under sadness Susan and Xiao Jing bought something to eat and drink. The operation has lasted more than six hours, and Gu Beichen has been in for more than three hours Now, there is no news, there is always hope. "I don''t want to..." Luo Xiaomi choked. Gu Nanyi squatted down with a heavy heart. "My little aunt needs to be taken care of after the operation. Do you want to help my little uncle take care of my little aunt and Xiao Jie?" "Yes!" Luo Xiaomi nodded hurriedly with red eyes. Gu Nanyi pulled the corners of his mouth and smiled astringently, "then you have no strength. How can you take care of it?" Luo Xiaomi was stunned, then sucked his nose, took the milk and sandwich, and began to eat hard No one is really in the mood to eat, but everyone is an adult, and it is clear that after such a big operation, Jane Mo and Gu Beichen must be taken care of. If they have no energy, how can they do it? "Xiao Jing," Su Jun asked after looking for an opportunity, "the news outside..." "I dealt with it and it''s all down." Xiao Jing pulled the corners of his mouth, "Uncle Li has also strengthened his vigilance on this side of the hospital and won''t let people from the media come over." Su Junli nodded and said nothing more. Huakang hospital is very large. There are many operating rooms alone. It can be said that since Jian Mo entered the operating room on this floor, the whole floor was sealed Time continues to pass, from the beginning of the lantern to the late night, until the early morning! When the sound of "bang" came, everyone was nervous and instinctively nervous. At the same time, they got up one by one and stared at the door that turned off the "operation" signal light. The door was opened No one moved! Li Yunze came out tired, as if he hadn''t rested for days and nights. "Li Shao..." Everyone dared not ask. Xiao Jing took the lead. "The operation was temporarily successful..." Li Yunze''s voice was dull under fatigue. "But I don''t know whether I can wake up now." In a word, let everyone''s heart go up and down like a roller coaster. "What do you mean?" J frowned at Li Yunze and asked angrily, "can''t you be more straightforward?" "It means that Jane Mo is at least 80% likely to become a vegetable." Li Yunze''s voice became more and more hoarse. "It''s a miracle to survive." Everyone just felt the roar in their heads It''s probably a vegetable. What''s the difference between that and the living dead?! "To be alive is always a hope..." Su Junli suddenly opened his mouth silently, and his voice was firm under a touch of sadness. "The foam I know is not a person who gives up easily. As long as I give her a chance, she will try her best to go on with hope." Everyone looked at Su Junli. At that moment, everyone felt Su Junli has lived with Jian Mo for more than four years. He should know Jian Mo very well. At this moment, no one thought about the relationship between Su Junli and Jian Mo in those four years. They only want to believe that Su Junli said this because he knew Jian Mo, and Jian mo... Will be strong until he wakes up. "I''ll go and see Xiao Jie..." Cen Lanxi seemed to be much older. Gu CI came forward, "Mom, I''ll go with you..." CEN Lanxi nodded and went to Jian Jie''s ward with Gu CI. Lu Hanyu and Su Anyuan are taking care of Jian Jie. Seeing Cen Lanxi coming, they hurriedly asked, "how''s Xiaomo?" "The operation was successful," Gu CI said solemnly, "but I don''t think people can wake up for the time being." We are all experienced people. When we hear this, we are dignified one by one. "It''s always good news that people can survive..." Su Anyuan said softly. Looking at Cen Lanxi, who used to be an iron lady in the mall, Lu Hanyu came forward and held her hand without saying anything ¡­¡­ Jian Mo was sent to the ICU, and Gu Beichen stayed in an observation room outside the ICU. "Beichen, will you have a rest?" Gu Nanyi said anxiously, "I also want to eat something..." Gu Beichen looked very sad and his voice was hoarse, just like the saw blade pulled through the rusty steel pipe. "Third sister, how''s Xiaojie?" "Uncle Su and aunt Su have been taking care of them. Now my mother and eldest sister are gone." Gu Beichen nodded slightly, "you all go out. I want to be alone." "Go out first..." Li Yunze said a little tired and looked at Xiao Jing. Xiao Xiao nodded and asked everyone to go out while looking at Bei Chen with some worry. After a while, everyone left the ICU observation room, leaving Li Yunze and Gu Beichen. "Wait, I''ll have someone arrange a bed here, but you want to eat." Li Yunze said, "Beichen, you know very well that when you fall down, Jian Mo''s survival consciousness will dissipate..." "I know..." Gu Beichen was a little weak. "Yunze, you let me stay alone." "Good!" Li Yunze answered and felt uncomfortable. After looking at Beichen, he turned and left. At the moment the door closes, even at the last crack Li Yunze saw Gu Beichen holding his head in his hands, and sorrow shrouded all the people in an instant. The door closed with a click. Gu Beichen endured his grief. At this moment, he was completely unable to contain it. He cried out in grief The sobbing sound of "sobbing" is like a ghost echoing in the empty observation room. Gu Beichen held his face and cried bitterly. Even if he was strong enough to face everything and hold up for Jian Mo, he couldn''t bear it. Remorse, in the sound of sad crying, pervaded. He shouldn''t think that after solving the second uncle, everything is settled The second uncle can plan everything in advance a long time ago or even earlier. In the end, let him grasp the judgment of the court trial. How can he end this matter so easily? Everything just confused him. The real is today! If he was careful enough, if he thought more about Chenyu''s phone, would it not happen today? Gu Beichen slowly got up, and tears blurred his sharp and familiar sight. He leaned back slowly, his head against the wall... The ink pupil was full of grief. Mo''er will bear these because of him... All of them! Chapter 913 Li Yunze was standing at the door. Xiao Jing and others who had not dispersed looked at him with complex expressions. "Li Shao..." Xiao Jing came forward and clenched his hand slightly. He looked at the closed door, vaguely, and could hear the sad sound of a little pain inside. Li Yunze leaned against the door because he was too tired. He slowly opened his mouth: "let him be alone. No one goes in..." after a pause, he got up and walked to Susan, "go and prepare some convenient and nutritious food." Susan nodded with red eyes and turned away. "Everyone should do what..." Li Yunze looked around. "Jane Mo can''t wake up. What are you doing here?" "I''ll see Xiao Jie." Su Jun sighed and turned away. But, in the back, there is endless sadness. If If he had been a little tough at the beginning, wouldn''t Mo Mo bear so much even if he had a Gu Beichen in his heart? Su Junli smiled at himself, powerlessly pressed the elevator, dragged his heavy body and walked in. Where are so many ifs? If you let Mo Mo choose, even if there are many obstacles or injuries with Gu Beichen... Is she willing?! She is so in love with a man named Gu Beichen. If she loves him, she can work harder and be stronger. Mo Mo, it''s one step away... You''ll work hard, won''t you?! ¡­¡­ New York, USA. Star''s mood is a little low. Specifically, he didn''t laugh and didn''t eat carefully when he woke up in the morning. "Is there something wrong?" Shi Shaoqin''s gorgeous face was cold and fierce. Meno checked carefully and shook his head, "star, everything is normal..." "What''s going on?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice became colder and colder. "I haven''t laughed or eaten much since this morning." Meno frowned and wanted to say that even children are emotional. Although, not many people can make it clear where their emotions come from and what they are. "Wow..." Suddenly, star kicked his calf and cried without warning. The special care and doctors in the room suddenly raised their hearts, for fear that star''s cry would annoy Shi Shaoqin and blame them... Although it''s normal for children to cry. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, walked forward, bent over and gently picked up star. He is not very good at holding children, but after this period of exploration and "learning", he has held them well. After being picked up by Shi Shaoqin, star stopped crying. However, the eyes as bright as black crystal stone were full of tears. In that way, they were pitiful and wronged. "What''s the matter, huh?" The soft voice overflowed with beautiful lips. Shi Shaoqin looked at the little guy softly and wiped his tears gently. Star''s mouth was flat. In that way, he was about to cry again. It was painful to death. "Take you out for a walk, will you?" Shi Shaoqin asked again, although he knew that the little guy would not answer him at all. At the right time, the mobile phone vibrated in the pocket. While Shi Shaoqin took out his mobile phone, Meno wanted to hold star, but star''s little hand clung to Shi Shaoqin''s collar and didn''t let go. Shi Shaoqin motioned and answered the phone Listening to the people inside, but for a moment, Shi Shaoqin''s face was shrouded in a thick haze. The whole room was shrouded in such a haze. Except for star, he still looked wronged, and everyone''s heart was lifted. "No one was nearby?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was murderous under the cold. "Awei is here," said the head of Los Angeles. "The rest of the people are a little far away. It happened so suddenly." Shi Shaoqin hung up the phone directly, took star to the window and dialed awei He looked at star with his small mouth deflated, and there was a trace of complex emotion in his narrow eyes. Does star feel that something has happened to Mo''er, so he is unhappy today? Is this the so-called "mother son connection"? "Qin Shao..." awei''s voice came calmly. "If you want to ask about the accident of Jian Mo and Gu Yan, I''m really nearby." Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but narrowed his eyes slightly "The red flower list has been removed," awei said slowly. "The people in the Mo palace don''t need to protect Gu Yan, do they?" After Gu mohuai tried the case, the safflower list was revoked Neither Gu Beichen nor Shi Shaoqin thought that Gu muhuai had left such a move in the end. Shi Shaoqin hung up and awei left the corner of his mouth For the express driver who occasionally follows Jane Mo, he has been to Los Angeles these days because he has been following Jane mo. he knows. But so what? Whether Gu Beichen or Qin Shao, a Jian Mo disturbed too many outcomes he thought would develop... If she died, maybe it was the best. He won''t stop. Anyway, Gu Yan''s protection order will automatically expire after the revocation of the red flower list. Qin Shao also didn''t give instructions to protect Jian mo. he was a killer. Naturally, he didn''t have such a kind heart to save people As long as he didn''t do it, Qin Shao had no reason to punish him. Awei poked his hand and stopped the car. "Go to the airport!" Car, across Huakang hospital. Awei glanced at the bright red cross sign, crossed the corner of his mouth with a touch of coldness, and then restrained his eyes. The hospital is still dignified. The people who should go back have basically gone back. In the current situation of Jane Mo, it seems that it doesn''t make sense for everyone to stay. J lay on the glass and looked at Jane Mo with various instruments inserted. His childish face showed complex emotions. Hello, Jane Mo, if... If you wake up, I''ll have your last name. Well, let''s go to the Luo da you said, okay? But you have to wake up first J stuffy shriveled the corners of his mouth, and there was a dim light in his eyes. Bitterly turned around, J saw Gu Beichen suddenly stand up, "what are you doing?" "I''ll be back soon." Gu Beichen left a word, motioned Susan to stay and left with Xiao Jing. "Chen Shao?" "Go to prison!" Gu Beichen opened his mouth indifferently, and his voice was cold. There was no temperature. Xiao Jing looked in the rearview mirror and didn''t ask any more questions. He started the car and went to prison On the way, he first called the director of the prison. After all, it''s already more than three o''clock in the morning. If you want to see the prisoner at this time, even Gu Beichen''s special identity still needs to be informed. Xiao Jing drove all the way and occasionally glanced at Gu Beichen in the back seat from the rearview mirror. "Chen Shao, do you want..." Xiao Jing is a little worried. He is afraid that Gu Beichen can''t control it later. He ends Gu muhuai directly in prison. Although Gu muhuai deserves to die now, it''s always bad for Chen Shao to do it himself in such a place. "Hum," Gu Beichen snorted coldly, and the eagle''s eyes gradually became deep and bottomless. "It''s hard for me, I can only make it harder for him!" He slowly narrowed his eyes, "go to grandma''s villa to get something first..." Xiao Jing looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror again. Without much to say, he already knew what Gu Beichen wanted to do, "OK!" Chapter 914 In the dark villa, there is a cold that has no popularity. Since grandma Gu died, aunt LAN occasionally came back to tidy up the old lady''s things. Usually, it''s just cleaned regularly. Gu Beichen opened grandma Gu''s study door, and a soft but bright light lit up the whole space. Throughout her military life, grandma Gu put many military merit medals and military books in the whole study. In such a study, the safe embedded in the wall after special treatment is particularly abrupt. Gu Beichen stood in front of the safe. Grandma Gu sighed in her ear "Beichen, if you can, I hope you won''t use the things in it all your life." Grandma Gu looked with a trace of forbearance, "I don''t want you to open it until the most difficult time..." "About the second uncle?" Gu Beichen was light. Although he asked, he was sure. Grandma Gu nodded, "in fact, I hope you won''t open it all your life!" Gu Beichen lowered his eyes, "OK..." Even if the second uncle did something like that to him, grandma didn''t take out the things inside. She wanted to involve too much or hide too much to say. Gu Beichen raised his hand, touched the password indifferently and opened the first floor door On his cold, carved face, there was a layer of haze, and he twisted the rotary code lock inside again. "Click" came, and Gu Beichen opened the door of the safe with his eagle eyes. There''s only one file bag in it, and there''s nothing left. Gu Beichen took it out, closed the safe and turned away from the villa. Along the way, Gu Beichen just looked at the information inside indifferently. No matter what he saw, there was no change in his cold face... It was as if he had no emotion except a simple mo. The prison is on the outskirts of Los Angeles, near the mountains. Under the cover of night, there is a strange smell. With a clang, Gu Beichen slightly stirred up the eagle''s eyes and saw Gu muhuai in prison clothes and handcuffs taken out by the prison guard "Chen Shao, I''m here..." the prison guard glanced at Gu mohuai. "Well, I''m a little anxious. Go first." Gu mohuai sneered coldly at the corners of his mouth, laughing at the prison guard''s lame excuse. "It seems," Gu mohuai looked at Gu Beichen with a calm face as if he had no emotion. "Cheng Qing did it." "Sure enough, it''s your back move..." Gu Beichen''s voice was as calm as his face. Gu muhuai smiled, but that smile was insidious. "Gu Beichen, you and I have fought for so long. Even, you know that one step I take will count as a hundred steps... Why is it so careless?" "Yes, it''s really careless!" Gu Beichen drooped his eyes slightly, and his real emotion could not be heard in his voice. "I didn''t notice a person who has loved my aunt for so many years and didn''t get spiritual problems." Gu mohuai didn''t expect Gu Beichen to be so calm. His eyes were dark, "is Jane Mo dead? Or... Is Jane Jie dead?" His plan is that someone will die in the end. The child before Jian Mo has run away and has been depressed. If Jian Jie dies, it''s the best Jane Mo will go crazy, and Gu Beichen will naturally have a hard time. But if Jane Mo dies, the ending is also good... Doesn''t Gu Beichen like her to have no principle?! "Let you down..." Gu Beichen raised his eyes. "They are all alive." "Impossible!" When Cheng Moqing was ill, he would not let me stare at Jane so much "Second uncle, I don''t understand. Why are you doing this?" Gu Beichen said slowly, "last time we met in the detention center, I thought you were just to revenge Gu''s family. Until today, I didn''t understand what it was for!" Gu mohuai snorted coldly, looking at Gu Beichen''s line of sight, but with a smile. "Yes, Cheng Qing succeeded." Gu Beichen said, with uncontrollable grief in his expression, "although Xiaojie and Mo''er are alive, Mo''er may not wake up in his life..." "Ha ha......" Gu muhuai immediately looked up and laughed. After laughing for a while, he looked at Gu Beichen with gloomy eyes. "Gu Beichen, do you know why I don''t deal with you directly?" He grinned and said, "because that pain is nothing to you." Gu mohuai leaned over slightly, with a ferocious face like a devil. "Whether it''s the emperor or you, it doesn''t mean anything to you... But Jane Mo is different. After so much experience, you love her and owe her... Only she is the biggest blow to you... Ha ha!" Gu Beichen didn''t speak. He just looked at Gu silently and smiled I don''t know how long it took. Gu muhuai''s laughter slowly converged. His eyes were scarlet with excitement. "Aren''t you in pain? Ah?" "I''m in pain..." Gu Beichen didn''t hide it, and his voice became cloudy. "Even, I wish I could kill you myself!" "Come on, come on!" Gu mohuai suddenly got up and looked down at Gu Beichen, laughing wildly. "I did everything I should do. Even if I didn''t fully meet my expectations, I have no regrets in my life... Ha ha! Gu Beichen, come on, kill me... Come on!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips were shallow and raised an arc. A pair of ink pupils were already dark and bottomless. "Do you know how Shaoqin dealt with the people who tortured him?" He raised his eyes and his eyes were cold. "It''s too simple to let a person die... But people often suffer when they live." If Mo''er doesn''t wake up all his life, he will suffer all his life. He''s having a hard time. No one wants to be better! Gu mohuai sat down again. "I''m alive, but I''ll be happier every day..." he smiled grimly, "because I''m very happy when I think of your pain!" "Second uncle, do you think I came here today just to make you laugh at me?" Gu muhuai''s laughter converged slightly. Looking at Gu Beichen, there was obvious doubt in his gloomy sight "I went to grandma''s place before I came." Gu Beichen said, took the file bag and threw it in front of Gu mohuai. "There are some things that grandma wants to hide for a lifetime. Even if you sent me to Mo palace, I was hurt like that, and she didn''t want to tell you the truth." Gu Beichen Junyan gradually shrouded in haze, "because grandma always appreciates your parents'' kindness to her..." Gu mohuai had a faint light in his eyes. He looked at the file bag suspiciously. "You hate Gu family because you think grandma is stepping on your parents," Gu Beichen gritted his teeth. "But why are you so abnormal now?" Gu mohuai picked up the file bag and looked up at Gu Beichen He gritted his teeth and said, "it''s because you think you can''t have children. It''s the hands and feet made by your grandparents behind your back... Just to prevent you from having a chance to spy on your family and your children from earning money with me, isn''t it?" Finally, Gu Beichen''s voice was filled with a roar that he didn''t want to hide! Chapter 915 When it comes to infertility, Gu muhuai''s obvious eyes are filled with anger "You hate taking care of your family because of your parents." Gu Beichen looked at him and his voice was still calm. "You become psychologically distorted because you can''t have children... Gu muhuai, you are abnormal, but you need others to bear your personality defects!" "Gu Beichen..." Gu mohuai suddenly slapped the file bag on the table with scarlet eyes. "Do you always think you are the Savior? From my parents to me, you just wear the face of a philanthropist and do some dirty things." "Dirty?" Gu Beichen sneered, "speaking of this, if you recognize the second, who dares to recognize the first?" His eyes became cold. "Gu Mo Huai, don''t you look at these things inside? If I were you, I would laugh plainly!" "In fact, you don''t have to see..." Gu Beichen smiled, with a dark irony, "if you know that your parents were so dirty, how do you face it?" Light Yi''s voice was cold and scornful. Gu Beichen looked at Gu mohuai and continued, "you can''t imagine that your parents, who always thought they had made great military achievements, have been colluding with drug lords, and even let how many people fall into this vortex." "What are you talking about? What are you talking about -" Gu muhuai suddenly stared like a copper bell. "Gu Beichen, do you think it''s meaningful for you to say this now? People are dead. Do you make rumors about this, meaningful?" "Rumor?" Gu Beichen''s dark pupil said, "look at those things. Are they really rumors!" Gu muhuai suddenly felt a little flustered. As soon as he took out the data, he stared and began to look "How many crimes did your parents commit? If it wasn''t for grandma, do you think they had a chance to retain their military status after death?" Gu Beichen''s voice was cold and heartless, "Gu mohuai, you won''t be a martyr''s Orphan..." As Gu muhuai became crazy, he began to turn over the information and continued: "you can''t have children. You think your grandmother did it, but have you ever thought about it... Your parents are taking drugs!" "No, it''s not like this..." Gu muhuai turned over the data and began to tremble with mania. "You made it up, all of it!" "Besides, you are not infertile. You have a son, you know?" Gu Beichen looked at Gu mohuai and suddenly smiled. That smile showed a trace of metamorphosis. Some things, he promised his grandmother not to say, now he must say. Some things, he promised Jane Zhanfeng not to say, but now... He also wants to say! Gu murhuai subconsciously looked at Gu Beichen "In those years, you wanted to frame Dad..." Gu Beichen said with gritting his teeth. "If it weren''t for Jane Zhanfeng, maybe your plan wouldn''t be like this." He hissed coldly, "Gu muhuai, can''t you think of it? Jian Heng, it''s actually your son..." "Impossible!" Gu mohuai widened his eyes, "absolutely impossible!" "Jane Zhanfeng loves Sumer. That night, Sumer thought it was him..." Gu Beichen sneered. "Jane Heng, it was there that night!" Gu mohuai''s eyes widened "It''s ridiculous to think about it," Gu Beichen said with a strange smile. "You arranged to kill Xiaojie today, which is also my retribution." Gu Beichen gritted his teeth, "because..." he suddenly paused. Seeing that Gu muhuai was nervous because of his physical instinct, he said slowly, "I killed Jian Heng!" "Gu Beichen -" Gu murhuai roared. "I did it myself." Gu Beichen smiled and was bloodthirsty. "Jian Heng is your son''s business. I promised Jian Zhanfeng that no one would say, but what to do? I''m in pain and let you live... It''s not my current style of Gu Beichen!" "Impossible, impossible... Absolutely impossible..." Gu murhuai shouted wildly, "I not only have no fertility, but after that, I can''t manage personnel, children, where are the children?" How can a person who has no sperm survival rate come to his child if he doesn''t lift it later? "Don''t worry," Gu Beichen smiled, "I''ll give you the DNA of you and Jian Heng soon..." He leaned forward slightly and looked at the crazy silence, "of course, if you think I''m a fake, I won''t mind." His smile gradually converged. "You have done so many things, it should be clear... Whether the information here is forged, or even whether the DNA results I gave you are forged." Gu Beichen slowly straightened up, "you should thank yourself for making so many fake things, so that you can most directly see whether something is true..." Gu mohuai''s hand holding the data trembled uncontrollably, and his lips were convulsing because of anger. "Gu muhuai, my son is fine, and my wife will be fine..." Gu Beichen looked at Gu muhuai''s cracked face and smiled, "but your son died, and your parents died of the dirtiest illness because of the poison... You can only live in pain and suffering because of your behavior in this life!" "Ah -" Gu muhuai suddenly roared, "Gu Beichen, I''ll kill you!" Gu mohuai''s body suddenly rushed at Gu Beichen. Unfortunately, Gu Beichen easily avoided it. His forehead suddenly hit the corner of the table. "Ah, kill you, kill you..." Gu muhuai lost his mind and kept pouncing on Gu Beichen like a crazy beast, "my parents are not like that. I can''t have children, not because of them. I don''t have children... Ah -" A prison guard hurried in outside. Seeing the situation inside, he quickly controlled Gu mohuai. Gu mohuai struggled frantically, looking at Gu Beichen with scarlet eyes, as if he were going to eat him. "Second uncle," Gu Beichen looked at Gu mohuai being dragged away by the warning, and smiled with evil charm at the corners of his mouth, "I must be very lonely in prison alone. I will often come to see you..." He is not a good man, especially after passing through the Mo palace. Shaoqin used Luo Songxian ten times and a hundred times what he had suffered... Then Gu muhuai had to pay for his pain all his life. Dawn comes after the dawn tears the black silence. The fiery red light in the East haloed out a rosy glow, full of hope. He was sad and fell asleep on the side of the hospital. Gu Huachen obviously looked back at him "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing looked at Jian Mo in ICU, "I''ll buy some breakfast." "Go back and have a rest..." Gu Beichen''s voice was indifferent, and there was no Shen Li in prison. "I''ll wait to see Xiao Jie and eat in the hospital." Xiao Jing''s nose was sour, "why don''t... I take you back to wash and have a rest?" "Xiao Jing, I''m fine!" Gu Beichen gently put his hand on the glass. Looking from his line of sight, it happened to be Jian Mo''s face, "for her, I won''t fall..." He smiled slightly, lowered his eyes slightly, and the bottom of his eyes was a little wet: "I said I would be behind her... When she is tired, she can lean back." Paused, "what if I''m not strong enough to hold her?" Chapter 916 Xiao Jing''s nose suddenly became sour. He slightly turned his face and didn''t dare to take care of Beichen. He was afraid to see the invisible overflow of sadness on Chen Shao, the helplessness under self blame, and helplessness! What can we do about the pain? What pain can offset the pain in my heart at the moment? "OK..." Xiao Jing took a breath secretly. "I''ll come this afternoon." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered softly, "I won''t go to the company recently. You should deal with it first." "I know." Xiao Jing took a deep breath and waited for a while. Seeing that Gu Beichen had nothing to say, he turned and left the observation room. Susan just came out of the bathroom. "Back?" She came forward, "Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing looked back. Although he couldn''t see anything at the closed door, "I''ll take you back to wash. The operation of the company can''t stop." "OK..." Susan didn''t ask much, and left silently with Xiao Jing. In Huakang hospital, Xiao Jing and Susan are not worried that Gu Beichen will be taken care of. It''s just that physical fatigue can rest... What about heart?! ¡­¡­ When Gu Beichen went to see Jian Jie, he had woken up. "Daddy..." Jian Jie shouted when he saw Gu Beichen. His small nose was sour and began to cry. Gu Nanyi turned his head and his eyes were red. When the little guy woke up, he just asked Jane Mo about it and didn''t say a word. Even, he didn''t have much emotion For a moment, she thought whether Jane Jie had fallen something. However, the wise man didn''t forget his sadness, but his sadness didn''t want to be seen by "outsiders". Gu Beichen sat down by the hospital bed and leaned over slightly. Some thick fingers gently wiped Jane Jie''s tears. "If you love Mommy, don''t blame yourself, okay?" "But," Jane Jie lowered her eyes and tears fell uncontrollably, "if I didn''t want to take the bus, that wouldn''t happen... Neither would Mommy..." Jane Jie said here, there is no way to continue, the small body takes a smoke. Gu Beichen wanted to hug Jian Jie, but there were many small wounds rubbed on his body. "It''s not because of you," he said softly. "It''s a plan for a long time. Even if there was no yesterday, there would be another time." Jane Jie didn''t speak, just kept crying. Gu Nanyi''s tears are also falling uncontrollably. He loves not only Jian Jie, but also Gu Beichen. "But..." Jian Jie raised his eyes and looked at Gu Beichen with tears. "Mommy may not wake up, right?" "I''ll wake up." Gu Beichen said shallowly, "with me and you, how can Mommy be willing not to wake up?" Jane Jie is still crying. How much he "dislikes" Jane Mo, how much he loves this Mommy. From birth to sensible, and then back He and Mommy have experienced many things, but they just want to live a happy life. That''s all. Why is it so difficult to realize?! "Jane, don''t you need to kiss Beiyan on your forehead..." now, don''t you understand? " He got up, and eagle eyes looked firmly at Jian Jie who cried like this for the first time, "we need to be stronger and full of hope, so that mommy can find the way back..." Just like when Mo''er married him, let him get rid of the darkness a little bit. Now He needs to be the sunshine of Mo''er and the star that guides her. So does Xiao Jie! "Hmm..." Jian Jie answered with tears and sobs. "Mommy, such a hopeful person, will work hard for me, daddy and Xiao Yan!" Gu Nanyi couldn''t stand it anymore. She turned and left the ward, covered her mouth and began to cry. CEN Lanxi, Gu Moyuan and Gu CI just came over. When they saw Gu Nanyi, they were so scared that they turned white. "Nan Yi, is it Xiao Jie? What''s the matter?" CEN Lanxi''s voice trembled. Gu Nanyi shook his head and said sadly, "Mom, why... Why does Beichen have to bear so much?" She couldn''t control her emotions. "He just wanted to be with Jane mo. why can''t people all over the world see it... Is it so difficult for them to be together well?" Gu Nanyi finally turned into a roar. As a famous lady, from small to large, she is as arrogant as a peacock Even, her love and family, everything is plain sailing. Now seeing Beichen like this, she suddenly felt sad about whether she had taken away her brother''s happiness index. Gu Nanyi''s words made Cen Lanxi freeze in place. She looked at her daughter numbly. Her accusation made her heart tighten in an instant. Here, Gu CI is the person who has the most contact with the relationship between Jian Mo and Gu Beichen. She sighed deeply, and the sadness spread Because of Chu Zixiao''s relationship, she has actually never liked Jian Mo, but now this woman, in retrospect... Lives too tired, too tired. But even so, she still tried so hard to go down with Beichen In this world, how many women can be so steadfast to their men after so much experience? "Jian Mo deserves Beichen''s kindness," Gu CI said to Cen Lanxi. "Beichen''s luckiest thing in his life is that a woman named Jian Mo has become his wife." Yes! Gu Beichen''s luckiest thing in his life was that he met Jian Mo when he needed help most that day, and then became his wife The sea of people is vast, how many people can find the most suitable semicircle? Obviously, Gu Beichen is lucky. However, such luck has borne too much, too much. Gu Beichen took a paper towel and gently wiped the tears on Jian Jie''s face. "Get better with your heart and let mommy not worry, okay?" "Yes." Jane answered with a small mouth, "can I go and see Mommy first?" "Of course..." Gu Beichen gently rubbed Jian Jie''s head. "Mommy will be very happy to see you safe." CEN Lanxi came in and saw Gu Beichen''s tenderness. For a moment, it seemed that they could forget the sadness he suffered. "Beichen, I brought chicken soup. Would you like some?" Gu CI asked, turning away from his sadness. "OK," Gu Beichen didn''t refuse, "thank you, elder sister." Paused, "I''m afraid I''ll bother you recently..." "Family, what are you talking about?" Gu Ci was dissatisfied. Look at your father and Lanxi. They''ll take good care of you in the company recently. "Look at your father and Lanxi, and they''ll take good care of you." Gu Beichen looked at Cen Lanxi and was surprised that she changed her name. "Beichen, mom doesn''t have any ideas. I just hope everyone is good..." Cen Lanxi''s nose is sour, "good, good!" Nothing is more important than peace Only when people are all right can there be more possibilities, isn''t there?! Chapter 917 "Mo''er, it''s raining outside today..." Gu Beichen looked out of the window. "It''s not too big. His sight is a little hazy." Gu Beichen looked back at Jian Mo and smiled. "The building you designed with Shen Chu," he took a cotton swab and dipped it in water to moisten Jian Mo''s lips, "just as you think, many young people came to see it. It''s very hot." After a month''s care in ICU, Jian Mo has now been transferred to the VIP ward. She just lay quietly on the hospital bed and had removed the foam from most of the instruments. It was as if she was just asleep. This month, Gu Beichen almost regarded Huakang hospital as his home. "Shen Chu submitted your design today and participated in the national real estate Architectural Design Competition..." Gu Beichen''s voice was smiling, deep and magnetic. "He also gave a combination name, saying that he should have a stage name like the master." Gu Beichen smiled, "but I don''t know what it''s called. She said she''ll tell you when she looks back at you." The rain outside was a little heavy and hit the glass window, ''crackling''. The weather in April in Los Angeles has reached the end of spring. Such rain shows a trace of coolness. Gu Beichen will tell Jian Mo a lot every day, sometimes his thoughts, sometimes some trivia of the emperor, and also some about Xiangyu. Of course, he will also talk to Jian Mo about Li Yunze and his friends Sometimes, Gu Beichen will feel that if you put aside Jian Mo and fall asleep, in fact, such years are quiet and good, which is really good. Company is the longest love confession. Gu Beichen is always thinking that if he is not with Jian Mo every few days, will she wake up urgently because she is not used to it There was a loud noise outside, filled with anger, which broke the peace in the ward. "Li Shao, it''s no use talking to me..." Xiao Jing looked helpless. "Well, I can handle some things, but I have to deal with some things. I can''t do it all the time." Li Yunze sneered, "Xiao Jing, don''t give me this set..." "I''m serious, Li Shao." Xiao Jing became innocent. "This young lady can''t wake up. As the supreme director, she doesn''t recognize me as the CEO. The CEO can only be Chen Shao... So I can''t do anything for the CEO." "What''s none of my business?" Li Yunze sneered, "shit, this is a hospital. Gu Beichen lives here. I charge bed fees anyway, but what the hell are these?" Xiao Jing looked over with Li Yunze''s eyes. The workers were calmly transforming the ward into a study Well, I still got through to two VIP wards! "Li Shao, how much is the room charge? You can actually give the bill directly to Chen Shao..." Xiao Jing decided to pretend to be a fool. "Shit!" Li Yunze burst into foul language, "that''s not what labor and capital said, okay?" Xiao Jing continued to play silly. "What does that mean?" "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corner of his mouth, "Xiao Jing, you can... I''ll go directly to Gu Beichen. Shit, I can''t open the hospital soon." "Xiao Jing..." Gu Beichen''s voice came at the right time, showing the gloom of discontent. Xiao Jing knew that Gu Beichen was dissatisfied. Their voice seemed a little loud just now. It must have seriously disturbed Chen Shao''s love talk to his wife or family. "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing ran past with a dogleg. Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze, who glared at him angrily, gently opened his thin lips, and his voice was indifferent. "Evaluate the market value of Huakang hospital. I want to buy it!" "..." Xiao Jing didn''t react for a moment. Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth, "shit, Gu Beichen, you madman!" He gnashed his teeth. "OK, just toss... You fucking toss, whatever you toss!" Then he hummed angrily, turned around and left angrily. Before leaving, he said to the nurse who called him up: "this floor has been contracted by Emperor Gu. Don''t arrange for the patient... I have recorded the return bill and loss fee clearly!" Xiao Jing grinned and began to laugh. He didn''t forget to tease Li Yunze. He joked at his back and said, "Li Shao, in fact, if you don''t sell, Chen Shao, it''s useless for me to evaluate!" Li Yunze looked back at Xiao Jing coldly, hummed and entered the elevator. "Shit, there are women without humanity..." Li Yunze pressed the elevator with gnashing teeth. "This is a hospital. It''s so fast that it has become an emperor branch because of Jane Mo!" With a Ding, the elevator reached the first floor. He Li Ze almost knocked out of the elevator door and was almost ready to come in. The two looked at each other, and then, one coldly crossed, the other grabbed the corner of his mouth and entered the elevator, as if they were strangers. But at the moment when the elevator door just closed, Li Yunze turned and looked He saw nothing except that the last gap was closed. ¡­¡­ It was raining outside. The raindrops beat the car and made a clear sound. In the narrow carriage, Chu Zixiao is a little depressed because he doesn''t speak Zhang Nian knows the situation of Jian Mo very well because she is an intern in Huakang hospital and a nurse in VIP ward. However, when Jane Mo was operated on that day, she was not on duty. Chu Zixiao didn''t really put down Jian Mo in her heart. She knows After all, it is so unforgettable. "At this time," Zhang Nian looked at Chu Zixiao with some uneasiness, "and asked you to act with me..." she lowered her eyes and her lower lip, and didn''t go on. Chu Zixiao drove the car indifferently, the wiper moved back and forth, mechanically and rhythmically, "I generally won''t break my promise." There is not much emotion in the plain voice. Zhang Nian lowered her eyes and said, "Oh," my father and mother will leave tomorrow. Thank you. " Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but drove on to Feitian Hotel Originally, he wanted to be invited elsewhere. But Yang Yi meant that if it rained, it wouldn''t go far. Chu Zixiao had to arrange the dinner in their hotel. Fortunately, the grade of Feitian hotel is not rude. Are you ready to change your clothes from the bedroom "Zhengtang, do you really want to do this?" Yang Yi was a little uneasy. "We also know these days. Chu Zixiao has a woman in her heart. If she turns back..." she sighed, "what if she hurts Niannian?" "Things have happened," said Zhang Zhengtang coldly. "He can''t help it." Yang Yi was always a little worried, but she didn''t say any more. Now the competition in the family is fierce, so they think of this daughter. How can they find a capable man "I can see... Chu Zixiao is a man in charge." Zhang Zhengtang''s eyes were burning, "if such a man can really become the reliance of reading..." Chapter 918 Chu Zixiao learned from Zhang Nian that Zhangjia is a more traditional family. Zhang Zhengtang likes Chinese food, tea and chess. The dinner is still arranged in the Chinese restaurant. From the dishes to tea, if Chu Zixiao is not interested in Zhang Nian, the whole process is full of respect and intention. "Wait, is there anything else?" Zhang Zhengtang looked a little different from last time. This time Chu Zixiao in a suit asked. "No arrangement!" Chu Zixiao answered lightly. Zhang Zhengtang nodded. "Niannian''s mother and I will leave tomorrow," he said. "When they talk about self-respect, will you accompany me to have a cup of tea Yes, but obviously it can''t be refused. Chu Zixiao smiled and answered without showing any dissatisfaction, "OK." Zhang Nian hesitated to wring his fingers and carefully looked at Chu Zixiao, "Dad, you..." "Why, afraid I''ll embarrass him?" Zhang Zhengtang interrupted Zhang Nian, obviously dissatisfied. "It''s all right..." Chu Zixiao glanced at Zhang Nian, and the overflow emotion was not much, not too hypocritical to dress, but there was no sense of alienation. "You and your aunt have a good chat, huh?" Zhang Nian fell into the deep sight of Chu Zixiao and nodded subconsciously. "I''ve been busy reading recently. We''ve been here for so long. I''ve seen some friends, but I don''t see many daughters..." Yang Yi said with a smile. "Sure enough, women don''t stay." "Mom..." Zhang Nianjiao shouted helplessly. Yang Yizhe smiled and stared, so she didn''t go on. A meal is easy to eat Zhang Nian doesn''t worry that Chu Zixiao can''t cope with his father except that Zhang Zhengtang and Chu Zixiao will say some messy words when they are alone. After all, Chu Zixiao came from a rich family and is a lawyer. He won''t lose in terms of momentum or eloquence. Chu Zixiao didn''t know much about the tea ceremony. He could only say that he knew about the procedure. "Smell..." Zhang Zhengtang handed Chu Zixiao a smelling cup. Chu Zixiao took it and sniffed it in front of his nose. The tea smell was very strong, "Dahongpao?" "Yes." Zhang Zhengtang was a little surprised that Chu Zixiao could smell it. Chu Zixiao seldom drinks tea at ordinary times. Sometimes he needs to work and often uses coffee to refresh himself. The reason why I can smell Dahongpao is that Tang Yu likes it. The taste of this tea is relatively heavy. Zhang Zhengtang handed Chu Zixiao a cup of tea, "try it!" Chu Zixiao took it, looked at the tea in the purple sand bowl, and then sipped it The tea fragrance in her mouth showed a strange taste. However, Chu Zixiao just wanted to taste it, but it was covered by the tea fragrance in her mouth. "How?" Zhang Zhengtang stared at Chu Zixiao with deep eyes. "I don''t know much about tea," Chu Zixiao didn''t hide, "but uncle is a tea lover, and this tea is naturally top-grade." Not a compliment, just a direct statement. Zhang Zhengtang''s wily vision was covered with indifference, but with a deep smile, he took another set of tea set. "The taste of Dahongpao is too heavy, you don''t drink tea, I''m afraid you''re not used to it... Just this time he brought some Taiping monkey Kui, and you can try it again." "Good!" Chu Zixiao didn''t think much, but waited for Zhang Zhengtang to brew a good mood. ¡­¡­ "Mom, Dad won''t embarrass Zixiao?" Zhang Nian was a little uneasy with the passage of time. "Niannian, your father is not here at the moment. To be honest, you deliberately asked Zixiao to act because you don''t want to go back..." Yang Yi unscrewed the prepared juice and poured a cup, "do you really like him?" "Mom, I really like him..." Zhang Nian said this, his shoulders drooping obviously. "Just like it?" Zhang Nian raised her eyes, took the juice handed over by Yang Yi and drank, "I don''t know what feelings should be like... But every time I see him unhappy, I will be sad. Seeing him happy, I will be in a good mood." Although, her mood is always her own thing. "Your father and I haven''t gone for a while, and we have learned something..." Yang Yi sat down beside Zhang Nian. "Zixiao has someone in mind, isn''t he?" Zhang Nian lowered her eyes. Compared with her mother in front of Zhang Zhengtang, she forgot her disguise. "I want to replace the person in his heart," Zhang Nian turned the cup, "but I don''t know what to do..." Yang Yi loves her daughter a little. She is a proud girl from childhood to adulthood, but she wants to inherit the family... Although she is only a girl. "If I give you a start, will you go on with him without turning back, not afraid of obstacles and difficulties?" Yang Yi looked at her daughter''s slightly red face and asked. Zhang Nian raised her eyes and looked at Yang Yi. Her pure eyes were full of firmness. "It''s good if you can be firm..." Yang Yi''s eyes vaguely showed a strange emotion. Zhang Nian didn''t think much either, but just converged his sight and subconsciously continued to drink juice Night, as time goes by, becomes a little heavy. I don''t know when the rain stopped and the wind began to blow. The wind of "Wuwu" is like a ghost, passing through the eardrum and showing a strange and treacherous look. Yang Yi kept turning around in bed, "Zhengtang, is this really good?" "OK, I''ve already done it." Zhang Zhengtang closed his eyes. "My daughter likes Chu Zixiao. I also tested him at night. It''s a pity..." "Huh?" Yang Yi simply sat up and turned on the bedside wall lamp. Zhang Zhengtang opened his sharp eyes, "if his interest is not in the law, in fact, he is really the best helper." He simply got up and poured a glass of water, "but it''s the same with his help." "I''m afraid he won''t think about it..." Yang Yi was worried about being a mother. "No." Zhang Zhengtang chuckled. "He''s a man in charge... Besides, if he works as a lawyer and is exposed tomorrow, what else can he do?" Yang Yi sighed deeply and said nothing more. However, at the moment, Zhang Zhengtang, who is making a loud calculation, did not expect that some things are beyond his control. In addition to the whole Zhang family, there is only one Zhang Nian who plans to pay for him. There is no one else! In another luxurious guest room of Feitian Hotel, on the huge bed, human shadows overlap, revealing the whining and coarse gasping of men and women. The dark sky was shrouded in dark clouds, without the shadow of stars and moonlight. Chu Zixiao and Zhang Nian, who were drugged in bed at the same time, all their actions and exploration are now based on instinct That kind of madness under control, as if each other can be greatly relieved only by trying to own each other. I don''t know how long later, the ambiguous voice gradually stopped and was replaced by the sound of heavy breathing. The house is beautiful. For a long time, the ambiguous breath in the air can''t be dispersed Chapter 919 the second day. The dawn rips the darkness of the night, and the sun shines softly between heaven and earth. While volatilizing moisture, the air is full of the smell of flowers and grass. "Little aunt..." Luo Xiaomi pushed open the door and shouted. Seeing Gu Beichen wiping Jane Mo''s face, he hurried forward, "little uncle, I''ll come." Gu Beichen made a "um" sound, handed the towel to Luo Xiaomi and looked at Gu Nanyi who followed in. "When I came over, I went to the villa by the way," Gu Nanyi put the insulation box on the tea table. "Aunt Luo said that her mother told her that she would come to deliver dinner at noon." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly, sat down and began to eat breakfast. While Luo Xiaomi gently wiped Jian Mo, she laughed and talked about the fun of her stalking a star yesterday. "Your little aunt is not as gossip as you!" Gu Nanyi can''t stand his daughter''s temperament. Luo Xiaomi glanced. "No..." she hummed, "women gossip!" Gu Nanyi was unable to laugh or cry. Seeing Gu Beichen, he didn''t care, so he didn''t say anything. After Jian Mo''s operation, Gu Beichen became more silent, as if he had forgotten how to get along with people except talking to Jian Mo and interacting with Jian Jie. "I heard Xiaojie say that he will leave the tour with Su Jun this summer vacation?" Gu Nanyi asked. "Well," Gu Beichen said faintly, "he said that Mo''er is working hard, and he should work hard every day like mommy." Gu Nanyi is a little sad. No matter Zixiao or the second sister''s family, or Xiaomi, the children of Gu family grew up under the care of their parents. Xiao Jie didn''t stay with his father since childhood. Now his mother has become a vegetable again "Third sister, Mo''er will wake up." Gu Beichen glanced at Gu Nanyi, "it''s just a matter of time." "Even for you, Mo Mo will wake up..." Gu Nanyi said softly, "I don''t know why, maybe it''s also obsessive. I always think she won''t be willing to go to this step with you, but there''s no way to be perfect." "Yes!" Gu Beichen smiled. "She owes me 33 good morning and good night..." he said, his eyes becoming deep. "She is stubborn again, and can''t stand being owed all the time." Gu Nanyi nodded. He was sad and wanted Beichen to comfort her. How could she feel more sad?! Just in time, someone opened the door and came in. Gu Beichen looked sideways and saw Xiao Jing coming with big steps "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing looked at Gu Nanyi, leaned over Gu Beichen and whispered, "something''s wrong with Chu Shao." Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing with a slightly chilly face. He took out his mobile phone and handed it to him after calling out something "Fortunately, in the past, the people who went to the clinical examination knew each other and were pressed down for the time being." Xiao Jing said. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but looked at the information on the intranet of the anti pornography Bureau In the early morning, it was reported that some stars participated in the collective selling of silver in Feitian hotel. The anti pornography Bureau went to sweep the whole building and swept Chu Zixiao and Zhang Nian together. What is the relationship between Chu Zixiao and Zhang Nian? Gu Beichen doesn''t know. However, the nurse was the special nurse of Chu Zixiao during his coma, and he still knew it. "Well, if you have something to do, Xiaomi and I will go first..." Gu Nanyi got up and was not interested in what Xiao Jing and Gu Beichen said. "Xiaomi, go." "Oh!" Luo Xiaomi answered stiffly, and then said sweetly to Jian Mo, "little aunt, come and see you when I finish writing..." Gu Nanyi looked at her daughter helplessly. She suddenly wondered if the daughter was her own?! Why haven''t you seen her so close to yourself?! Well, she''s a little jealous of Jianmo "What do you say over there?" Gu Beichen asked. "It''s said that Chu Shao is not very good," Xiao Jing was worried. "People in the Bureau said that watching the surveillance video, Chu Shao and Zhang Nian went to the hotel together..." Gu Beichen frowns slightly. He knows Zixiao very well Whether it''s because of Mo''er or himself, Zixiao is very clean about premarital sex. It''s not Zixiao''s style to take this nurse to the hotel. "Go and find out," Gu Beichen handed his mobile phone to Xiao Jing. "Let''s see the situation." "OK." Xiao Jing took the phone and turned away. Gu Beichen got up and went to the bathroom to wash his hands before he went to Jian Mo''s side. "In fact, it would be nice if Zixiao could be with the nurse..." Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and kissed it gently. "At that time, it seemed that the nurse liked Zixiao very much." Make complaints about Beichen''s fingers gently rubbing the hands of Jane, smiling at jokes, "really, you first love with other women''s room, you do not intend to wake up Tucao two sentences?" Jian Mo quietly "slept", Gu Beichen didn''t mind, but continued to talk to himself alone Just as he told Gu Nanyi, he believed that Mo''er would wake up. It was only a matter of time. He didn''t want to be out of touch with life during her missing time. No matter good or bad life, he wants to share it with her ¡­¡­ Monterey, USA. In an elegant villa near the sea, Shi Shaoqin sat on a chair under a sunshade with a baby cradle beside him. The setting sun crossed the sea, and the fine waves seemed to be sprinkled with crystal, bright and moving. The mobile phone "buzzed" on the table and shook. Shi Shaoqin picked it up indifferently. After seeing the call, he picked it up and put it in his ear. "I''m going to visit Los Angeles in a few days," said Shi juechi. "Go and see Mo mo." Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak. After several seconds, he slowly said, "well." "Shaoqin, aren''t you going to come with me?" Shi juechi strolled by the beach of Mo palace and looked at the sunflower that had withered into a bare pole. He was a little distracted. How long has it been since Shaoqin came back? Years later, I only came back once! "No!" Shi Shaoqin spoke indifferently. Shi juechi frowned slightly, answered, and hung up without saying anything more. The sound of the water splashed on the beach with a beat. Shi juechi stood there, and his warm face gradually overflowed with doubts. What is Shaoqin hiding? ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin hung up the phone and looked at the sleeping star. It''s been a month since Jane Mo''s accident. Mo palace has the rules of Mo palace. Awei really didn''t need to do anything to Jian Mo or Gu Yan at that time However, he found a reason and took awei out of his anger. Gu Yan owes Gu Beichen his life. But for Jane mo Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes gradually overflowed with a tangle under the complexity. He didn''t know what emotion he was holding towards Jian mo. However, she guided Beichen out of the dark star. She is star''s mother. Are they also a little connected? Shi Shaoqin raised his hand and pointed his belly gently across star''s soft face. In a gentle voice, he said, "shall I take you to see her?" Chapter 920 The sea breeze gently blew Shi Shaoqin''s words away. Star is still sleeping quietly, and his little face is calm under serenity Shi Shaoqin sighed and didn''t speak. He just narrowed his eyes and looked into the distance. Monterey has a good climate, like spring all the year round, which is most suitable for living. Shi Shaoqin just bought this place a few days ago. He plans to bring star here occasionally in the future He didn''t want to take star to Los Angeles to see Jian Mo, but Gu Beichen should be the most sensitive time. He doesn''t like to do uncertain things. Although he doesn''t exclude star from knowing who his parents are later, it will never be before his parents know him! The setting sun in Monterey seems to be lazier than that in other cities. Compared with the calm of Shi Shaoqin and star in the sunset, the morning sunshine in Los Angeles is obviously a little different and dignified. Chu tianqin and Gu Ci''s faces were not very good. Looking at Zhang Zhengtang and Yang Yi, who were also not very good, the two sides were gradually at a crossfire. "No matter who is right or wrong," Zhang Zhengtang said coldly, "it is my daughter who suffers." "My son, I know very well that he can''t do such a thing." "Why, is that how my daughter deliberately went to your son''s bed?" Zhang Zhengtang''s face sank even more. Gu CI said coldly, "I don''t know if it''s Zhang Nian..." she looked at Zhang Zhengtang sharply, "but we all know what some people think." Gu Yunyi said, "this is what Zhang Jiayi just wanted to do, isn''t it?" Zhang Zhengtang''s face suddenly changed. Unexpectedly, Gu CI knew their identity so soon. At the right time, Xiao Jing came over He first looked at Zhang Zhengtang and Yang Yi, then looked at Gu Ci and said, "elder sister, the formalities have been completed." Gu CI answered and looked across Zhang Zhengtang. Without saying anything, he turned and walked out Outside the Bureau, Zhang Nian drooped his eyes and held his mouth tightly. Chu Zixiao''s face was too dark to describe, "if this is what you want, I can give it to you." "I......" Zhang Nian raised her eyes, with tears in her eyes. She looked at Chu Zixiao, opened her mouth, and finally dropped her eyes without saying anything. The body is as uncomfortable as being crushed by something. Do you wake up at the scene of being caught "raped" or naked in bed with Chu Zixiao She doesn''t know how to describe her mood. What does she want to explain, but what does she need to explain? Last night, she should have known what her mother said and the juice she was given to drink A wave of sadness and confusion opened, and Zhang Nian''s nose was sour in an instant. Originally, there was an obstacle that could not be crossed between her and Chu Zixiao. Now, it has directly become a gap. "Zhang Nian, since you want me so much, I''ll do what you want..." Chu Zixiao''s voice was cold and ruthless. "In the future life, let''s torture each other together!" While his words fell, the corners of his mouth overflowed with the treacherous under the cold. Chu Zixiao didn''t say anything, but when Zhang Nian raised her eyes and looked at him with red eyes, she turned coldly and went to Gu Ci''s car. Chu Tian Qin sighed and got on the bus first. "I really underestimated you..." Gu CI went to Zhang Nian. "In fact, Beichen said you. I thought it was also an opportunity for Zixiao to come out." Zhang Nian''s tears had begun to turn around in her eyes. She just quietly held her lips and didn''t say anything. "But it''s not surprising," said Gu CI with a proud look of contempt. "Yuncheng Zhangjia, what can''t be done for the purpose?" Gu CI ignored Zhang Nian''s words. She couldn''t help crying and got on the bus with a cold hum. Xiao Jing sighed secretly and got in the car and left without saying anything Zhang Zhengtang and Yang Yi came out at the right time, only to see the shadow of the car left by Chu Zixiao and others. "Why?" Zhang Nian looked at her parents with red eyes. "Why?" "No, can you handle Chu Zixiao?" Zhang Zhengtang sneered. Zhang Nian smiled and laughed at herself. "When did I say I''m going to take care of Chu Zixiao..." she shouted sadly at them, "why did you have to participate in and plan my life from childhood? Who wants to be who in that family, and why did you disturb my life in order to meet your private desires?" Zhang Zhengtang''s face became dark and suddenly fell, "you are my daughter of Zhang Zhengtang, so you must bear this responsibility." Zhang Nian''s face was beaten to one side. It was even more because he was unprepared. His teeth knocked against the meat in his mouth, which immediately filled his mouth with blood. "Zhengtang!" Yang Yi''s eyes widened in horror and hurried forward to see her daughter. "Don''t touch me!" Zhang nianyi stepped aside and looked at Zhang Zhengtang with anger. "I''m wrong. I shouldn''t think you love me and will let me, so let Zixiao help me..." She gritted her teeth, "I won''t marry Chu Zixiao, and I won''t go home... Who loves that family, who wants it!" Zhang Nian gnashed his teeth and then suddenly pulled back his eyes and turned around. Regardless of the swelling of his body and the pain in his heart, his back was straight and walked forward Tears, like broken pearls, keep falling down. For the so-called family rights, her parents drugged her and Chu Zixiao, which contributed to the reason why they had to be together That''s not what she wants, no! She has been humble enough in front of Chu Zixiao. What do you want her to do now? "Wuwu..." Zhang Nian suddenly squatted down, hugged his knee and began to cry loudly. Chu Zixiao''s last words and sarcastic face seem to enlarge dozens of times and involve her nerves ¡­¡­ "Zixiao, you don''t really want to marry Zhang Nian, do you?" Gu CI frowned at his son. His face was full of anger. Chu tianqin drove the car and looked at Chu Zixiao. Then he said to Gu Ci, "don''t ask your son now. He''s such a big man. He knows what he wants to do." Gu Ci was more angry when he heard this, "I won''t admit Zhang Nian''s daughter-in-law..." Her son has been planted on Jane Mo once, and now there is such a woman! At first, I didn''t like her family background, but now it''s better... Yuncheng Zhangjia, but it''s really belittled. Chu Tian Qin sighed and wanted to say to Gu CI: Zixiao has grown up. Who has his own opinion except Beichen? Has he really listened to it? If you really want to marry Zhang Nian, no matter what the purpose, he and Gu CI can''t control their son. "Dad, take me to the hospital..." Chu Zixiao suddenly said. "To the hospital?" Gu CI suddenly became nervous and subconsciously looked at the important part of his son, "what are you doing in the hospital? You won''t last night..." Chapter 921 The corners of Chu tianqin''s mouth twitched. He really couldn''t stand the angle that women sometimes think about problems. Chu Zixiao didn''t answer Gu Ci and was not in the mood. Chu tianqin drove directly to Huakang hospital. Gu CI looked at the sign of the hospital and didn''t know why. He suddenly felt that his son was coming to repent With whom? Who''s here now?! "I happened to go to see Jian Mo too..." Gu Ci''s voice was a little strange. Although she feels sad between Jian Mo and Gu Beichen, she always thinks she will be more sad if her son can''t let go! "Don''t go," said Chu tianqin after holding Gu Ci, who was about to get off, and looking at Chu Zixiao who had already got off. "Isn''t Beichen there?" Gu CI endured, "is Zixiao looking for Beichen or Jianmo?" "No matter who you are looking for, your son is hard enough now. Don''t make trouble..." Chu tianqin said, releasing Gu Ci and opening the window. "Zixiao, there''s something else in the company. Your mother and I won''t go in." "OK." Chu Zixiao responded faintly, making people unable to see his mood at the moment. Gu Ci''s face was calm. His son was cheated by others. He felt angry at what he thought. Chu Zixiao indifferently took back his sight and stepped into the hospital In due time, Xiao Jing has also parked the car. He glanced at Chu Zixiao''s back and frowned slightly. Then he loosened his safety belt, got out of the car and followed him. Chu Zixiao stood at the door of Jianmo ward and looked inside through the visiting window The morning sunshine hit Gu Beichen through the clean glass window. He was wearing a white casual shirt and his wild and thin short hair was dyed by the morning light. He didn''t feel mature, but showed a sense of youth. Chu Zixiao suddenly remembered seeing Gu Beichen at school at that time He has just been admitted to junior high school. Gu Beichen is a sophomore in the headquarters. It was an afternoon when he leaned on the tree trunk. The sun penetrated the leaves and fell on him mottled, showing the beauty of clean and pure. At that time, the sunshine seemed to illuminate everyone Just like now, pure and clean guidance to foam. "Later, the male master used a special way to get the ''lovesickness spirit'' on Matterhorn peak and sent it to the female master..." Gu Beichen gently told the love story in a pleasant voice, "in fact, I really want to know whether this'' lovesickness spirit ''exists or not?" Gu Beichen lowered his eyes, and the morning light crossed his eyes. On his handsome face, there was a thin, but warm smile. "Mo''er, why don''t we go back and have a look?" Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at Jian Mo with a smile, "well, if there is, we''ll pick one." Jane Mo is quietly "sleeping", and a wisp of sunshine falls on her face, which is as good-looking as sleeping beauty. There was no sadness on Gu Beichen''s face and voice. His Mo''er just fell asleep. She pestered him to accompany her in this way, and finally became a little capricious. "Well, that''s all for today..." Gu Beichen got up and took water and cotton swabs to moisten Jane Mo''s lips. "We''ll continue tomorrow." Gu Beichen said, and the smile on his thin lips spread He could almost imagine that Mo''er would be angry if he woke up and heard him say so. In particular, Ming Ming is very anxious, but he deliberately pretends that he doesn''t want to know Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen''s action like this, and suddenly felt like he hadn''t seen him for a long time. Gu Beichen seems to have left him for a long time. He can''t remember for a long time However, because of foam, he came back. Because he said: this time, he wants to be the sun of foam and the stars that guide her Chu Zixiao didn''t go in at last. He came because he was confused and didn''t know how to deal with what happened last night. But not now Everyone''s life should be explored by himself, whether good or bad. "Chu Shao?" Xiao Jing looked at Chu Zixiao with some doubts. "I''m looking for Beichen, not Mo mo." Chu Zixiao replied, "but I think I have an answer. I don''t need it." Xiao Jing didn''t speak. After Chu Zixiao left, he also looked at the ward, and then went to the "Ward" to deal with some documents sent by Susan. Time is like Zhongsha, quietly passing. In the twinkling of an eye, in May, Los Angeles began to enter early summer. Shi juechi stayed in Los Angeles for a few days. Every day she sent Jane a bunch of sunflowers and told her about the missing sunflower seed, which bloomed in Mo palace Before he left, he just gave Jane a picture. Under the setting sun, the sunflowers in full bloom on the beach pursue the sun. Their tenacity makes people full of hope. After Jane Mo''s accident, the Dragon owl came back to Los Angeles several times, both sad and happy. The worry is that Jian Mo can''t sleep for a long time. The joy is that Gu Beichen has become the real Gu Beichen... At least in front of Jian mo. Long Xiao and Gu Beichen thoroughly cleaned Gu mohuai''s foundation. In addition, Gu Beichen went to "visit" Gu mohuai every three or five times. Stimulated, they disintegrated some of his hidden forces. Secretly solved, there are dragon owls. Gu Beichen was not soft at all. Even Shen Hangzhi tried to get out of prison, but Gu Beichen sent him in again Li Yunze said that Gu Beichen is a frightened bird now. He''s a little suspicious. He''s strangled in the bud... Typically, he''d rather kill by mistake than let go. However, Li Yunze has a bad temper recently, which is reflected in how to take care of Beichen and how uncomfortable he is. According to Xiao Jing''s words, that is, you can''t see the deep love of others, and you are alone. Chu Zixiao''s business is a little complicated, but Gu Beichen didn''t take care of it It''s not because Jane Mo is not in the mood, but everyone should be responsible for his life. Since he chose that road, no matter what the result is, he needs to bear it by himself. "Xiao Jie''s birthday is coming," Gu Beichen gently blew the freshly washed hair to Jian Mo, "Mo''er, will you surprise him?" "I accompanied J to see the school today, and he was very satisfied... However, he was still tangled with the name. He disliked that I didn''t get up well, and said he wanted you to get up..." Gu Beichen smiled. "I was suddenly a little jealous, big and small, competing with me!" "Mo''er, I have a gift for you," Gu Beichen said softly. "I''m speeding up recently. I''m afraid you''ll wake up suddenly, but I don''t have time to give it to you..." Gu Beichen sighed and looked out of the window The sunset is about to disappear in the sky. At the same time, the roar of the plane passed, and the roller rubbed the ground until it stopped. "Flight ua496777 from New York has arrived at Los Angeles International Airport..." There was a good sound on the radio. Shi Shaoqin indifferently hugged star out of the airport and followed Xi Cheng. "Giggle..." star was a little excited and jumped in Shi Shaoqin''s arms. His bright eyes were shining like stars. Shi Shaoqin looked at the little guy with deep eyes Is it because you breathe the air where your parents are, that''s why you''re so happy? Chapter 922 Shi Shaoqin, who was picked up by the person in charge of Mo palace Los Angeles, directly sent him to the crescent Lake Villa in the suburbs, which was designed by Jian mo. "The car is ready," the person in charge said. "The baby basket and baby seat are also placed." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered indifferently, "there are people around. I don''t want anyone to see the existence of star." "Yes!" "Go down." After Shi Shaoqin said indifferently, he took star through the main gate and walked towards the crescent lake. "Ah..." star was obviously very excited and kept jumping on Shi Shaoqin''s arm. His black eyes were full of curiosity about the whole world. Shi Shaoqin looked at star''s excited appearance, and his beautiful mouth couldn''t help overflowing with a soft smile. "Feel the breath of my mother?" Shi Shaoqin asked softly, "I didn''t see you so happy when I went to Monterey." "Giggle..." star didn''t know if he understood Shi Shaoqin''s words, grinned, waved his small hand and smiled at him. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes softened, and the afterglow of the sunset fell on the crescent Lake in the suburbs, overflowing with sparkling light. J was a little surprised when he received a call from Shi Shaoqin. "Qin Shao?" "How''s Jane Mo?" Shi Shaoqin asked faintly. J tilted his mouth. "The body is recovering well, but there is no sign of waking up..." he leaned against the wall. "However, Gu Beichen felt that she would wake up and was a little confused and confident." After the sadness and anger of Jane Mo on the day of her car accident, it has been more than two months, and j doesn''t seem to be so angry. Well, it''s mainly because Gu Beichen is really good to Jian mo. "I''m in Los Angeles..." "Huh?" J didn''t react. After being stunned, he widened his eyes, "are you in Los Angeles?" He questioned, "Jue Shao has just left for a few days." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered, "I''ll go and see Jian Mo, but I don''t want to see Gu Beichen." "Oh..." J answered and thought, "basically Gu Beichen won''t leave Jian Mo, but in about two or three days, he will go to the temporary office next door to deal with some things of the emperor." "How long?" Shi Shaoqin asked indifferently. J thought for a moment, "I don''t know the details. There are advantages and disadvantages..." when he said, he suddenly grinned. "It''s not easy for Qin Shao to take Gu Beichen a long time to deal with it. Just get him something out." Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes and looked at the little guy dancing in the cradle. His eyes became soft. "Do you think he won''t doubt it?" J tilted his mouth and said with a groan, "find a way by yourself. I''ve been very busy these days." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered faintly and didn''t ask J what he was doing. After hanging up the phone, Shi Shaoqin took star back to the villa, asked the servant to cook the milk for star, fed him, watched him fall asleep, and then went to the chair by the lake to sit down. Now, one year after another, Shi Shaoqin felt as if in retrospect, it had been a long time "Do you like wood style, too?" In the charming voice, there is excitement, which is a passion for the work you like. Shi Shaoqin looked sideways at the villa. His narrow eyes gradually became deep and bottomless. "Would you be very happy if you knew that star was in the house you designed yourself?" In the murmuring voice, there was a trace of tenderness, but, following, his vision was far-reaching and people couldn''t see to the end. ¡­¡­ At the weekend, Jane Jie went directly to the hospital after school. Whether Gu Beichen or Jian Jie, now Huakang hospital is almost home. Sometimes Li Yunze will do bad things and deliberately ask Jian Jie, "your father takes this place as his home and office. Why do you take charge of it?" The little guy looked at Li Yunze disdainfully, "how can a single person understand?" Before Li Yunze could react, Jian Jie said with disgust, "where there are daddy and Mommy, that''s home... I know, you can''t understand it." "..." Li Yunze felt that he was flustered by Gu Beichen. Why should Mao be blocked by his son? The most important thing is that Jian Jie''s next dislike made him feel a little loveless. "I know why you can''t feel it," said Jian Jie, looking up and blinking. The little Zhengtai''s face was completely Gu Beichen''s seriousness, "because you can''t see one by one!" "Hmm..." Jian Jie nodded definitely, then turned and walked to Jian Mo''s ward. "..." Li Yunze was as stiff as petrified. Looking at the little figure, he wanted to come forward and strangle him. "Li Shao, I''m sorry!" Xiao Jing came over at the right time, "you must believe, young master Jie, it was born by Chen Shaosheng... Well, that''s it!" Xiao Jing held back his smile and looked at Li Yunze''s dark face. He felt happy anyway. Li Yunze stood in place with a helpless face and felt that he had suffered for himself. Turning to leave, he pressed the down button of the elevator. Today''s reason, leaving aside Jane Mo, didn''t wake up. In fact, everything is very calm. Without the intrigue of the family and the surging of the emperor group, I feel... Everything is beautiful and makes people want to keep time. Jianjie''s birthday was on the floor of Jianmo ward. Everyone had a party. Only family members and friends with good relations. Everyone didn''t wake up when Jane Mo didn''t wake up. Jane Jie was very happy at the whole Party Because this is the first time that there are so many family birthday parties except for the birthday of daddy and mommy who just returned to Los Angeles last year. Jian Jie personally cut a cake and put it on the bedside table next to Jian Mo''s hospital bed. Then he leaned over and kissed Jian Mo on his face. "Mommy, I''m so happy..." Jane Jie smiled brightly on her little face. "Now there are not only Mommy, daddy and uncle, but also many, many families." Jian Jie lay on the hospital bed and looked at Jian Mo''s serene appearance. Holding his chin in his small hand, he supported his small head. "Well, you didn''t tell me happy birthday this birthday..." he turned his mouth, and there was dissatisfaction on his small face. "Won''t you wait for the next birthday?" No one answered Jane Jie, but he didn''t mind. He just said, "Daddy has prepared a gift for you... I won''t even tell you." Jane Jie was dissatisfied. "Mommy, can you guess what gift daddy prepared?" He suddenly proudly raised his eyebrows. "You''re so stupid, I can''t guess. I guess you can''t guess either." "Mommy, wake up quickly. When you wake up, I''ll know what gift daddy has prepared..." Jane Jie sighed, kissed Jane Mo again, and said with a smile, "I went to play with you and secretly told you that Daddy drew a lot of QR codes." His eyes twinkled with a gloating smile, "I think you can''t sweep it all day..." Chapter 923 It''s very lively outside. There are cakes and buffet For a moment, people feel that they are not in the hospital at all. Su Junli took the earphone and plugged it into his mobile phone, then gently put the earpiece into Jian Mo''s ear, "this is the song I wrote for Xiaojie for the summer tour recently..." Su Junli said and pressed the start button. In the soft piano music, there is a beautiful longing belonging to the children''s spirit. Every note seems to touch the hearts of the people. Su Junli''s piano can make people pregnant No matter from the arrangement or the style of music, people are comfortable and just want to indulge in it. "Xiao Jie hasn''t heard yet," Su Junli laughed. "Give it to him as a birthday present later." After the song was played, Su Junli took away his headphones. "Xiao Jie is really happy today because he received a lot of gifts..." he slowly leaned back in his chair and looked out of the window. "In fact, what is happy is not the gift, but the company of all his family." Taking back his sight, Su Jun looked softly at Jian Mo, "Mo Mo, I sometimes wonder if I will meet a girl who is as young as you are to Chen one day?" After a slight pause, he continued, "I don''t know if I can be so lucky, but I always feel that as long as I am as firm as you are in love, I can also be lucky." Lu Hanyu came in and heard Su Junli''s words. He smiled and patted his son on the shoulder, "luck will come to you and Xiaomo." Beichen loves so persistent, why doesn''t Xiaomo wake up? Someone is waiting for her. She must be fighting with the dark fog... It''s just a matter of time. The birthday party lasted until the afternoon before everyone left again and again. No one thinks Jane Mo is a vegetable. If you are tired of playing, you will come in and have fun with her. "Brother in law," Xiangwan and mu Xiaoran circled Gu Beichen''s arm around, and the two little girls smiled, "that design will be made for us, right?" Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was filled with a deep smile. Luo Xiaojing looked at Yu Ziyun contemptuously, "shame, in order to win, take the relationship!" "Hey, we can agree in advance..." Yu Ziyun picked his eyebrow. "If Xiangyu gets the emperor''s design project this time, you will have a baby for me this year." Luo Xiaojing snorted coldly. "This is for our crystallization. I use some means. What''s the matter?" Yu Ziyun became more and more proud, "no way, although I have the trump card of Chen''s young wife?!" Da Xiong and others happened to be around, and they immediately laughed "Do you think Chen Shao will agree?" Susan had a cake in her hand, but she didn''t eat it. "Lose weight again?" Xiao Jing whispered softly. Without waiting for Susan to speak, she had consciously put the cake on her plate into her own plate, "this taste is better than those..." "..." Susan twitched at the corners of her mouth and couldn''t stand Xiao Jing''s food. "I think I''ll promise..." Xiao Jing said hastily. "You think, these two little girls'' brother-in-law ''shouted. Chen Shao, who has no integrity, can you promise?" Susan nodded. "So!" She just dropped her words and heard Gu Beichen solemnly say: "it''s not a big project, so we won''t invite public bidding..." The implication is directly to Xiangyu. Xiao Jing looked at Gu Beichen contemptuously. Did the emperor have a project that was "not a big project"? Why doesn''t he know?! Some people despise, some can''t stand it, and some are happy Of course, Xiang evening and mu Xiaoran''s left "brother-in-law is the best" and right "brother-in-law is the best", which is the most pleasant for Gu Beichen. "I know," Luo Xiaojing clenched her teeth. "Gu Beichen is also immoral now. Anyway, Jian Mo likes it. He likes it all... Hum!" Yu Ziyun hugged Luo Xiaojing, "wait, we''ll go straight home..." "Why?" Luo Xiaojing didn''t react. "Make a villain..." Yu Ziyun looked ambiguous, regardless of the occasion, and looked like a sperm insect on his head. Luo Xiaojing was not polite at once. High heels made a close contact with Yu Ziyun''s feet directly. Gradually, everyone left. Jian Jie and Su Jun leave together to listen to the new music, and then he will send it back in the evening. After a period of time, we can all adapt to normal life At least Jane Mo is sleeping. Every day, she is included in each other''s lives. "Hey, the final will be next week. I''m a little nervous." Shen Chu peeled a banana for himself. "When we win the prize, we''ll come back with the name of our combination... I''ll go and find our designer and fill it up every minute." "Jane Mo, why don''t we open a studio later?" Shen Chu took a bite of a banana and smiled. "The emperor wants to find us in the future. Tell Gu Beichen every minute that he is not free!" Gu Beichen poured water over there. Listening to Shen Chu''s confident appearance, he couldn''t help laughing He glanced at Shen Chu and suddenly wondered if he should find a chance to tell her... The so-called Gu mohuai had strengthened her. Was it a misunderstanding? How strong is a Gu muhuai who can''t manage personnel after passing Su Mo? Gu Beichen converged his eyes, and the eagle''s eyes gradually became deeper No matter whether the person is Gu muhuai or not, it will hurt Shen Chu. Maybe it will be better for Mo''er to wake up and talk with two women. Shen Chu''s excitement completely ignored Gu Beichen''s listening there until a phone call came. She roared inside and left in a hurry. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, but he didn''t think about what had happened. After everyone left, it was almost time for dinner. "Go to the canteen and wipe your hands soon," said Gu Chen He smiled, kissed Jane Mo gently on her forehead and turned away from the ward. After giving an account to the nurses and nurses on duty outside, Gu Beichen went downstairs and went to the canteen of the inpatient department for dinner. "Hey, if I can find a boyfriend who is half as sweet as Chen, I think my life is worth it." A little nurse said with a look of longing. The dispensing nurse laughed. "We all think so." Suddenly, several people laughed. "Hey, have you heard?" Suddenly, a little nurse said, "Zhang Nian seems to have left..." "Why?" Someone asked, "didn''t she apply for detention before?" "I don''t know..." "I like her very much. She is diligent and easy to get along with... However, she seems to be in a trance recently, and I don''t know what happened." "I heard..." The sound of "Ding" suddenly came. The sound of the arrival of the elevator interrupted the nurse''s chat, and several people looked at it one after another. See the leader is j, just said hello, subconsciously looked at him, followed by a man with a slight droop of his head. The nurse didn''t think much. She just thought she came to see Jane Mo with J We also know the relationship between J and Gu Beichen and Jian mo. Although I don''t know his identity, Gu Beichen and Jian Jie treat him as family members. J and the man entered the ward together, and the nurse began to talk about Zhang Nian again About half an hour later, Gu Beichen came back from dinner. "Chen Shao!" The nurse said hello. Gu Beichen nodded slightly and walked to Jianmo ward without stopping When he came to the front, there was a baby''s crisp laughter. His eyes were suddenly cold, and he didn''t even think about it. Just instinctively, he pushed open the door of the ward Chapter 924 There is something strange in the ward. J is sitting on the sofa playing the magic cube. Jane Mo is quietly "sleeping". On the bedside table next to him, there is a mobile phone that is playing the audio of children''s laughter By the window, Shi Shaoqin stood with his hands in his pockets, his back always showing the indifference of loneliness and arrogance. "Qin Shao, Gu Beichen is back!" J raised his eyebrow and said. Gu Beichen enters the ward. Shi Shaoqin turns around in time. Their eyes are opposite in the air. In an instant, the surrounding air condenses together. "What did you do to Mo''er?" Gu Beichen''s voice was slightly chilly, with a trace of anger under forbearance. Shi Shaoqin smiled, his long and narrow eyes drooped slightly, and collected the emotion that flashed at the bottom of his eyes. "What do you think?" While Shi Shaoqin was making a sound, he raised his eyes slightly. His sight was deep but sharp, and he was opposite Gu Beichen. From time to time, there are several excited exclamations belonging to the child''s world. It was clearly the best laughter, but now it fell in Gu Beichen''s ear, full of sadness under irony. "Shi, Shao, Qin!" Gu Beichen clenched his teeth and clenched his hands in an instant. The sound of "quack" filled the ward, and the sound of dislocation of bone joints showed the heavy storm. J was a little confused. After all, as soon as Gu Beichen came in, he and Qin Shao planned to "go to war?" What didn''t Qin Shao do to Jane Mo? I said a few whispers, and then played the audio of the child laughing all the time However, although the smile is very cute, it''s a little strange to listen all the time. Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful mouth gently outlined a faint radian. The smile was frozen in the corner of his mouth and never spread, "Beichen, what are you afraid of?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is as deep as the sea, showing the calm before the storm. "Let me guess..." Shi Shaoqin walked slowly to Gu Beichen with a slow voice and a thin smile. "You must have guessed what I said to Mo''er? Even the purpose of this audio..." With a "Hoo", his fist was mixed with a fierce wind, and he attacked Shi Shaoqin without warning. Shi Shaoqin leaned slightly and flashed easily. J frowned. For the two men over the age of 30, he started to fight when they didn''t agree, indicating that they didn''t understand. J didn''t move, so he looked at the two big men. You punched and I kicked in the ward. He didn''t worry about Jian Mo at all, because J knew that neither Gu Beichen nor Shi Shaoqin would "hit" her. "Boring..." J looked at it for a while, turned his mouth, simply got up and left the ward, and the two childish men went to fight. "J, what happened inside...?" A nurse asked curiously. J grinned, looking particularly harmless, "want to know?" When he saw the nurse nodding hurriedly, he said seriously, "don''t you know if you go in and have a look?" "..." the nurse smiled pleasantly on her face and immediately stopped, "it''s not cute at all, hum!" "Hum..." J learned from the nurse and left the hospital with his mouth tilted. It was still playing in the ward. After about half an hour. Shi Shaoqin punched Gu Beichen at the corner of his mouth. Gu Beichen kicked him in the chest, and the two separated. "Shi Shaoqin, do you know how cruel you are to Mo''er?" Gu Beichen stared at the eagle''s eyes. Where is the usual steadiness? He was completely the same as a wild beast. Shi Shaoqin smiled calmly with deep eyes. "I''m just helping you..." he lowered his eyes slightly and slowly opened his mouth, "don''t you think it''s easy for Mo''er to wake up?" "I hope she wakes up," Gu Beichen gnashed his teeth, "but I don''t want to use this way..." "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin raised his eyes. "Don''t stimulate her in this way. What if she doesn''t wake up all her life?" His voice was calm, but his words were particularly sharp. Gu Beichen frowned at the sword eyebrow in an instant, and a pair of eagle eyes looked at Shi Shaoqin angrily. "What?" Shi Shaoqin sneered, "compared with her inability to wake up all the time, are you not sure?" "Shaoqin, you are wrong..." After a while, Gu Beichen said slowly, "Mo''er will wake up because she can''t let go... She doesn''t wake up now, but I know she''s trying." Shi Shaoqin sneered coldly and refused to comment. The baby''s laughter continued, just as good as the silver bell "However, you use the lie of ''Xiao Yan is still alive'' to stimulate Mo''er. Do you understand..." Gu Beichen''s eyes become a little scarlet under anger. "What does Mo''er have to bear when he wakes up?" Shi Shaoqin was still cold and said with disdain: "Beichen, what does Mo''er have to bear, that she can wake up..." his words fell and his sight became familiar, "if you can''t wake up, everything is false." Gu Beichen was immediately angered. Without saying a word, he swept his legs and went towards Shi Shaoqin. "You either deceive Mo''er that Xiao Yan is still alive," Gu Beichen shouted angrily, "or say that Mo''er can''t wake up... Shi Shaoqin, I really overestimate you and think you can change. It turns out that you only like to live in your world imprisoned by perverts." Shi Shaoqin''s face changed instantly. If Gu beichenkou didn''t block it, it also ignited his anger Suddenly, there was a sound of fists and feet in the ward. One did not let the other fight, and the other was stunned. "What is this?" Li Yunze frowned. The nurses stood far away one by one, indicating that they didn''t know what was going on inside. How could they know what was going on. Xiao Jing stood at the door and looked at the two men who were still "beautiful". He simply leaned on the door frame with his arms around his chest, "do you want to go in and pull it?" "You go." Li Yunze said immediately. Seeing Xiao Jing''s disdainful look, he shrugged, "my hands are very precious. If they are injured by mistake, they can''t afford to pay." Xiao Jing immediately sneered, "Li Shao, you don''t hurry to deal with the scratch of your childish hand. This hand is called Jingui?" He rolled his eyes unbearably. "Besides, if your hands weren''t a little inflexible at the beginning, I don''t know how successful Mrs. Shao''s operation would have been." "..." Li Yunze pulled out from the corner of his mouth. Just when he wanted to refute, he saw that the two people in the ward separated after kicking each other, "it''s ugly." Shi Shaoqin''s fierce eyes rowed towards Li Yunze, and then turned around. In everyone''s sight, he turned off the mobile phone audio and slowly bent over Jian Mo''s side "Mo''er," said Shi Shaoqin in a low but charming voice, "if it was an agreement, since I promised you, when you wake up... It will be realized for you." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "what agreement?" Chapter 925 Shi Shaoqin slowly got up, his long narrow eyes looked at Jian Mo, who was quiet and "asleep". On one side of his beautiful mouth, he smiled with evil charm He glanced at Gu Beichen with angry eyes. His smile deepened and didn''t say anything. While converging his sight, he turned and walked out. When passing Gu Beichen, he slightly stagnated. "If," Shi Shaoqin glanced at Gu Beichen with a disgusting smile on his face, "you have the ability to wake her up in a year, Beichen, how about I give you a gift?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but looked at Shi Shaoqin coldly. "I guarantee Gu Yan''s safety before he grows up..." Shi Shaoqin said slowly, "all-round!" When the words fell, he didn''t wait for Gu Beichen to speak. While the man had converged his sight, he raised his step and walked out When passing Li Yunze and Xiao Jing, he didn''t even give them any light. His whole body was completely indifferent and arrogant. "What a nuisance..." Li Yunze said coldly. Xiao Jing nodded heavily, "Li Shao, you and I are united in this regard." The words fell, and they took back their sight on the back of Shi Shaoqin and looked at Gu Beichen one after another. Gu Beichen has gone to Jian Mo and sat down beside her Li Yunze and Xiao Jing looked at each other and sighed one after another. Shi Shaoqin just made it clear that Jian Mo would not wake up because of Gu Beichen, and he didn''t know why he came here today The feeling is to make Gu Beichen uncomfortable. "The play is over. Let''s go." Li Yunze didn''t know whether it was Zinan or to whom. His words fell. He stared deeply at Beichen and turned away. Xiao Jing also closed the door of the ward and left. He went to the temporary office to deal with some things. "Mo''er," Gu Beichen held Jian Mo''s hand, "I don''t know what Shaoqin agreed with you..." he lowered his eyes and kissed her hand, "but if I can wake you up, I suddenly hope." The night fell low, and the soft light fell on the quiet space. There was no tension between Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin. Some were just calm under peace. Gu Beichen put Jian Mo''s hand on his cheek and gently rubbed it, "Shaoqin is still very annoying. I really don''t like to see him..." As he spoke, he suddenly smiled and slightly pulled the bruise at the corner of his mouth, which hurt a little. "It''s not because I didn''t want to see him in Mo palace for three months," Gu Beichen seemed to explain. "I just don''t like his arrogant appearance." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes deeply coagulated Jane foam, "in fact, he is a little self reproach, isn''t he?" With a slight sigh, Gu Beichen continued: "because the previous protection has been revoked, you and Xiaojie will be hurt, so... He found youtou for himself and wanted to compensate." The so-called "when you wake up in a year, give Gu Yan protection before you grow up". In fact, Shi Shaoqin has begun to lay a secret stake in the dark around Xiao Jie. Although it can''t be said that the protection of the ink palace can be foolproof, at least people in the dark world don''t dare to do it easily Gu Beichen rubbed Jian Mo''s hand again. There was a bit of cocoon on the edge of her middle finger, which was often left by holding a drawing pen. "I recently made the route we want to travel," Gu Beichen said brightly. "My first stop is still in the United States." "There was a problem in Xiaoyue''s case. The first court had no result, and the second court was about to be held..." Gu Beichen said softly. "At that time, I talked to Shaochen about her and said that she played very well in the first court. If this court session can maintain the standard, even if there is no result, she will not lose." Speaking of this, Gu Beichen smiled softly, "I entrusted the relationship and the video of the court session is coming. When you wake up, we''ll watch it together, huh?" There is not much sadness in the light voice. Gu Beichen, as usual, would chat with Jian Mo every day, and then say good night to her at night... Never stopped. Night has enveloped the whole city of Los Angeles, with neon flashing everywhere, but it has nothing to do with the quiet outside the suburbs. Star lay on the small bed and watched the bedside bell dance excitedly. Shi Shaoqin looked at Star playing there with deep eyes, and always had a soft smile on his mouth. He was going to take him to see Jian Mo, but he finally gave up Say he is selfish or how he is. In fact, MOR''s wake-up should not be related to star, should it?! Beichen can firmly believe that Jian Mo wakes up. In fact, he also thinks so! The sun always rises after the night. Even if it is cloudy, it can always penetrate the darkness, can''t it? He didn''t tell Jian Mo about the existence of star, or even whose laughter in the audio? Star''s laughter, he just thinks, is the cleanest and purest sound in the world, which can always give Jane Mo a little hope to lead to light, that''s all. Agree to Shi Shaoqin smiled. The agreement is just an agreement between himself and Jane mo. as long as she wakes up, she will let her see star, even if... It takes some effort. Time, little by little. Spring passes and autumn comes, summer passes and winter approaches, and the time always changes day and night. "There''s another hour, Xiao Yue''s court is about to open..." Gu Beichen moistened Jian Mo''s lips with cotton swabs. "This court didn''t expect to take so long." Gu Beichen slightly tilted his head and looked out of the window. Only the branches with residual leaves were not so depressed in the sun. "It''s said that the other party''s lawyer group has added an internationally well-known criminal defense lawyer..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "Shaochen analyzed that the final court is a little difficult to fight." He converged his sight and looked at Jian Mo, "Shaochen has passed. He said, cheer for Xiaoyue instead of you..." Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a smile. "You''ve been sleeping for so long. You said... Will you wake up when Xiaoyue''s court is over?" No one answered Gu Beichen. He was used to talking to himself. He felt that habits are sometimes terrible, but they are very warm Although no one answered him every day, at least the heart rate instrument on one side told him that his Mo''er was still alive, but he was too tired and slept for a long time. The sound of "Ding" came from Jane Mo''s mobile phone. Gu Beichen picked it up and opened wechat. It was a voice message sent by Li Xiaoyue. "Girl, I''m a little nervous... But when I think of your disdain for ''nervous wool'', I think, what a special thing, I''m fighting! I won the lawsuit, but I want to go back to see you..." Gu Beichen listened, smiled at the corners of his mouth, looked at Jian Mo deeply and said, "I''m wondering if you want to reply to her... Well, if you lost the lawsuit and don''t plan to come back to see me in your life?" Absolutely Jian Mo''s arrogant tone, Gu Beichen couldn''t help drooping his eyes, and the smile at the corners of his mouth spread instantly because he thought of Jian Mo''s appearance However, his drooping eagle eyes didn''t find... Jane Mo''s finger with a ring moved slightly. Chapter 926 But it was only a faint moment. Everything was calm again, as if nothing had happened. Gu Beichen put down the water cup and cotton swab and got up to pick up the water for Jane Mo to scrub There is good nursing in the hospital, but for ten months when Jian Mo lay in the hospital bed, Gu Beichen did it himself, whether it was scrubbing or body massage every day. Occasionally, Li Yunze would tease him in order to ease his mood. Of course, in the end, Gu Beichen, who was black and poisonous, paid back Li Yunze felt that the giant ship of friendship turned at every turn. It was almost the same rhythm as Gu Beichen''s friends every minute. Well, I''m bored recently. I''m brainwashed by those little nurses in the hospital every day... He''s an old driver now. ¡­¡­ California, USA. Mo Shaochen looked at the time. After entering the court, he found a better seat in the auditorium and sat down. Seriously, he didn''t see Li Xiaoyue''s lawsuit on the spot, but he saw it from the internal video at most. Some people entered the auditorium one after another, and the paralegals of both sides were also preparing the materials for the hearing. The atmosphere in the whole court was obviously dignified. In international criminal cases, the other party is clearly guilty, but after several court sessions, they are all pressed for retrial. And every time you delay, the difficulty coefficient will increase by a few points Li Xiaoyue revoked her lawyer''s license until Gu Beichen found a way to recover her, and then took the CA bar exam Finally, when she got her international lawyer''s license, she never thought that the first case she handled would take so much time. Also, because of this, her excellent performance, sharp and accurate words in court and steady defense have caused a sensation in the whole lawyer industry, and many people have shown great interest in this Oriental woman. "Zoe, wait and see you." An old man in the same lawyer group placed great hope on Li Xiaoyue. Li Xiaoyue smiled calmly, "I hope today is really the last court." The old man nodded with a smile, "it seems that you are well prepared." "Of course." Li Xiaoyue smiled more and more brightly. "This case has been delayed for too long, which has made my friend wait for me for too long... I can''t delay any longer. At least, I want to see her before the lunar new year." "Well, come on!" The old man and Li Xiaoyue hugged each other, and then they took their records and entered the court from the exclusive channel of lawyers. When the lawyers of the two sides met, they suddenly saw lightning and flint, as if war was imminent. Mo Shaochen didn''t tell Li Xiaoyue when he came, and Li Xiaoyue naturally wouldn''t go to see who there were in the auditorium. ¡°Court£¡¡± The previous procedure is nothing special. After the judge said the basic matters needing attention, the two sides entered the fierce confrontation and refutation of the war of words As both sides of the case put out more and more powerful evidence against their own side, the atmosphere in the whole court also became tense. "Please make the final statement..." the judge looked at Li Xiaoyue''s lawyer team and said. Everyone looked at each other. Finally, Li Xiaoyue slowly stood up. No tension, no fear... There is confidence from the inside out. Before she came to the United States, Jane Mo gave her an English name called "Zoe". Mo Mo said that Zoe stands for life in Greek Momo hopes that she will be reborn and cherish everything given by life in the next years... And she never stops and gives up for a moment. The final closing statement is perfect in Mo Shaochen''s eyes He looked at Li Xiaoyue talking confidently there. There were no mistakes or omissions in the details of every clause and every case in front of the judge She changed and was no longer the little lawyer who was a little embarrassed in front of him and always felt that his aura was too oppressive. Today''s Li Xiaoyue is shining... It is a light from self-confidence and control of professional fields. After Li Xiaoyue finished the closing statement, the defense also made the closing statement. Then, after the judge reminded the jury of several key points, the jury left the table and began to discuss the final decision. No one knows what the result is At least, the lawyers in the audience believe that both the prosecution and the defense have a chance to win. In terms of technical means, the lawyers of both sides are obviously equal. However, no matter whether the war is lost or won, the name of Zoe in the legal profession will shine in front of people. "Nervous?" The old lawyer looked at Li Xiaoyue and said with a smile, "I was not nervous when I saw you just now." "Generally, the atmosphere is tense only when waiting for the results..." Li Xiaoyue half joked. The old man patted her on the shoulder and said with a smile, "your performance today is great..." he paused. "After the case is over today, how about coming to my law firm?" Li Xiaoyue smiled and shook his head. The old man frowned. After all, his law firm is very famous in California and even the whole United States... There are many lawyers he wants to come to. Unexpectedly, his invitation was turned down. Li Xiaoyue just smiled, "someone is waiting for me in the distance... I have a reason to leave here." "Lover?" Asked the old man. Li Xiao smiled more and more helplessly, but Ren Xiao didn''t answer Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue like this, and his sight gradually deepened. It has nothing to do with other feelings. I just think that birds of a feather flock together and people flock together is reasonable. Whether Li Xiaoyue or Jian Mo, they are full of awe of life and desire for life That is the simplest thing in human nature, but it is often beyond the grasp of many people. Li Xiaoyue felt the hot eyes, slightly frowned, and subconsciously followed the past She looked at Mo Shaochen and was surprised for a moment. Mo Shaochen just smiled at her and nodded slightly. In a few emotions, Li Xiaoyue''s heart churned fiercely. ¡°Court£¡¡± Li Xiaoyue was pulled back to her thoughts by the voice. She quietly looked at Mo Shaochen for two seconds, then turned her head and stood up with the crowd. The judge motioned for everyone to sit down. Then, after his eyes crossed the lawyers of both sides, he read the jury''s final conclusion of the case Everyone was nervous and looked at the judge. "Finally, with a vote of 7-5, the defense party was charged..." the judge raised his eyes and looked calmly across both sides again. When everyone''s heart was mentioned to his throat, he said slowly, "... Established!" When the last two words fell, Li Xiaoyue immediately smiled with relief... Even subconsciously, he looked back at Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen''s smile is always light, but it shows his elegance. Just after the trial, he watched Li Xiaoyue come over and asked, "what do you want to say at this moment?" Chapter 927 Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen. Her eyes were pure and full of hope at the moment. "I want to say to Mo Mo," Li Xiaoyue took out her mobile phone, opened wechat, pressed the voice message and said slowly, "girl, I''ll go back to see you... With my glory and hope for life." Words fall, Li Xiaoyue''s eyes are full of tears, that''s what happened for a moment. Her nose is very sour, but the smile at the corners of her mouth is brilliant, like the scorching sun in full bloom. Mo Shaochen stared at Li Xiaoyue deeply, and his sight gradually became deep from appreciation When the gear of the plane crossed the blue sky and finally landed at Los Angeles International Airport, Li Xiaoyue breathed the breath of "home" and warmth. Only when she goes abroad can she know how much she misses this land and how much she loves this country and this city "Ah -" Li Xiaoyue stood outside the airport and shouted, ignoring everyone''s eyes. "Los Angeles, I''m back... Girl, I''m back!" She opened her arms and the smile around her mouth was so charming. Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes and smiled. Suddenly, he felt that this woman really became different from before. Although she is also a little "Crazy", now she is confident and charming. "I''ll take you to the hospital?" Asked Mo Shaochen. "Of course," Li Xiaoyue raised her eyebrows. "I don''t take the ready-made car. Do I take a taxi?" She blinked. "Besides, I haven''t changed soft money yet!" Mo Shaochen was stunned at first, then shook his head and smiled When Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue arrived at Huakang hospital, it was time for the lights to shine in Los Angeles. Gu Beichen knew she was coming back when Li Xiaoyue bought a ticket. But when the brand-new Li Xiaoyue stood in front of him, he looked up and down at the circle and said in a low voice: "welcome back with success..." "I also came back with hope." Li Xiaoyue said with a smile. His sight shifted slightly and looked at Jian Mo lying on the hospital bed. At that moment, Li Xiaoyue''s eyes turned red. She walked over, looked at Jane Mo with a smile in her mouth and said, "girl, I''m still waiting for you to see my lawsuit... Finally, my lawsuit was over, but you didn''t even give me a hug." Slightly coquettish and angry words showed dissatisfaction, but more, it was heartache. Gu Beichen lowered his eyes, collected the sadness slightly across the bottom of his eyes, and looked at Mo Shaochen, "eat first?" "OK." Mo Shaochen answered, subconsciously looked at Li Xiaoyue sitting by the hospital bed, and went to the hospital canteen with Gu Beichen. "Girl, before I come back, I think I have a lot to say to you..." Li Xiaoyue gently held Jian Mo''s hand. "I was thinking, do I want to tell you about my experience of leaving for more than a year, or should we first recall our wishes when we were back-to-back and watching the stars on the rooftop?" Li Xiaoyue smiled and said with tears, "but seeing you like this, I think it''s useless to say anything." After a pause, she sighed, "girl, you really shouldn''t have been lying like this..." she looked at Jian Mo, "if you see Gu Beichen''s look just now, you must be distressed to death." "From the beginning of your contractual marriage, until you leave and then come back..." Li Xiaoyue couldn''t hold back his tears. "I looked at Gu Beichen because you were changing. It was crazy." Jane Mo didn''t move. Li Xiaoyue thought that when she came back, she would be impatient to say that she didn''t live up to her expectations and wanted to use the past bit by bit to awaken her consciousness. However, at the moment of seeing Gu Beichen, Li Xiaoyue felt that everything was bullshit. The waiting of a man like Gu Beichen is more important than any reason for Jane Mo to wake up, isn''t it? "He pretended to be himself," Li Xiaoyue said sadly. "At that moment, I felt... He pretended and cheated everyone, even himself." "Mo Mo, aren''t you afraid that Gu Beichen has accumulated too many emotions and collapsed?" Li Xiaoyue roared. Jianmo still hasn''t moved. On the calm heart rate instrument, only the wave line is moving constantly, which shows that Jianmo''s life is still going on ¡­¡­ Hospital restaurant. Because of the longer time period, Gu Beichen doesn''t let his family come to deliver food every meal. Most of the time, it is solved in the hospital restaurant. In order to take care of Gu Beichen''s body, Li Yunze even asked the doctor in charge of nutrition matching to specially formulate a daily nutritional meal. "To Yuncheng?" Mo Shaochen raised his eyes and looked at Gu Beichen. He was a little strange, "what''s the matter?" "I''m worried that Zixiao''s means are too sharp..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "No matter what the final result is, some people are innocent." "I can''t get into this court..." Mo Shaochen told the truth. "Just go and have a look," Gu Beichen lowered his eyes. "When necessary, stabilize his mood." Mo Shaochen nodded, although he didn''t know why Chu Zixiao''s focus had shifted to Yuncheng in recent months. However, he still knows the case that Yuncheng will hold a court recently "Any questions?" Mo Shaochen spoke softly. Gu Beichen tilted his head, looked at the night outside the window and sighed, "I hope he thinks what he has done is right..." Xu Shi and Jian Mo have experienced too much. Gu Beichen always thinks that if he had admitted his mind earlier, or if he had been a little more domineering when Mo''er and Su Jun left Isn''t that the end today?! Because he and Mo''er have suffered too much, now they can''t see what others bear. Is the heart too soft? Maybe There is a person who can change you in my heart. How can I not be soft?! After Gu Beichen and Mo Shaochen finished eating in the canteen, they packed the food and went to the ward. "Eat something," Gu Beichen said faintly, "Mo''er won''t like you like this..." he paused. He scratched a touch of emotion in the depths of his ink pupil and said softly, "don''t force her too much." "Let her be wayward?" Li Xiaoyue is a little angry, but it''s not for Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen smiled and his eyes became soft. "He has always known his position since he married me... She has never been capricious with me and is always considerate." Li Xiaoyue frowned. Gu Beichen drooped his eyes and said with a shallow smile, "she was wayward with me for the first time..." The spoiled voice hid the sadness that Gu Beichen didn''t know himself. Li Xiaoyue''s heart was sour at once Her lips kept moving and wanted to scream: you are so affectionate and spoiled that Mo Mo can''t see it! But how could she bear it? "Mr. Gu," Li Xiaoyue bit his teeth, "you said... Will the girl wake up?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen lifted his eyes, and the eagle''s eyes looked firmly at Li Xiaoyue, "sure!" Chapter 928 Li Xiaoyue glanced at the corner of his mouth and looked at Gu Beichen''s deep and bottomless ink pupil. The corner of his mouth gradually hooked up "Yes, a girl who is so strong must be!" Li Xiaoyue said, taking a deep breath, "is there a place to sleep here?" She looked around. "The house hasn''t been cleaned for nearly two years. I''m afraid it''s too dirty to live in." "Yes..." Gu Beichen said faintly, "you''re here tonight. I''ll go next door." Li Xiaoyue nodded and went to eat. She knew very well that Gu Beichen knew she had a lot to say to Mo Mo and simply left them two women space. On the plane, Li Xiaoyue heard Mo Shaochen say something about Gu Beichen after Mo Mo became a vegetable. It''s just that when I really see her, she can still be sad Li Xiaoyue was having a meal. Gu Beichen went to fetch water to scrub Jian Mo first, and then did an evening massage. She didn''t speak, just mechanically stuffed food into her mouth, but her eyes kept staring at Gu Beichen All his movements are skillful and gentle. Li Xiaoyue sometimes thinks that if she were Mo Mo, she would not be willing to be like this man! Li Xiaoyue lowered her eyes and continued to eat, feeling a little sad in her heart. "About ten o''clock, I want to moisten her lips..." Gu Beichen looked at the time and explained to Li Xiaoyue. "Well," Li Xiaoyue nodded, "is there anything else to pay attention to in the evening?" Gu Beichen looked softly at Jian Mo, "no, she''s very quiet and won''t kick the quilt..." he paused. He suddenly looked down at himself. Li Xiaoyue''s heart suddenly soured again and didn''t expose Gu Beichen''s inadvertent vulnerability. Gu Beichen didn''t say anything more. He bent over and dropped an almost worshipful kiss on Jian Mo''s forehead. Then he got up and left the ward. Li Xiaoyue kept looking at Gu Beichen''s back until he closed the door of the ward, then took back his sight and sat down next to Jian mo. "Girl," Li Xiaoyue said softly, "I still remember how you looked when you said you were going to marry a man named Gu Beichen... Helpless and sad." Li Xiaoyue lowered his eyes, "but when I saw Gu Beichen''s sadness, I suddenly felt that you were not worth mentioning..." The ward is very quiet. Li Xiaoyue talks about the past and the future ¡­¡­ Yuncheng. Chu Zixiao stood on the observation platform at the top of the mountain with his hands in his pockets. His eyes fell in front and looked at the night scene of the whole Yuncheng City. Gradually, his eyes became familiar with it. Tang Yu drove up and saw a tall figure standing there in the distance. After stopping the car, Tang Yu sighed heavily and walked forward. "Zixiao, I''ve collected almost everything." Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but narrowed his eyes slightly Tang Yu''s mood was a little dignified, "are you sure you want to use this case as a lead?" After a pause, "you know, this time has begun, and the next things involved must be out of control." Chu Zixiao still didn''t speak. His silence made people feel that he wasn''t listening to Tang Yu at all. Tang Yu stopped talking and just looked at the bustling Yuncheng after leveling with Chu Zixiao. As an inland region, this place is very developed in both economy and all aspects The more developed places are, the more things hidden in the dark. "People, sometimes they have to bear for what they have done..." Chu Zixiao said after a long time. "They provoked me first. How can you blame me?" In the light Yi''s voice, there was a sudden indifference. Tang Yu glanced at Chu Zixiao, his lips moved and wanted to say something. Finally... He didn''t say anything. ¡­¡­ It''s past midnight in Los Angeles. In winter, it''s quiet and greedy. Gu Beichen lies on the rocking chair in front of the window of the temporary office, and Mo Tong looks at Mo Kong deeply. The stars show that tomorrow is another good weather Time has stopped, making people always feel as if it was a thrilling calm. The sound of "Di" came, and Jian Mo''s fingers trembled slightly, very weak. Li Xiaoyue was stunned at first, thinking that she was dazed, but when she tried to see it, Jian Mo''s fingers trembled slightly again Something exploded in her eyes, and Li Xiaoyue even forgot to breathe. Her mouth kept moving because of excitement. The syllables were stuck in her throat and couldn''t make a sound. "Ah --" Li Xiaoyue exclaimed, which not only attracted the attention of the nurse on duty outside, but also disturbed Gu Beichen in the "office" with the door slightly hidden. Gu Beichen almost reflexively got up and strode to Jian Mo''s ward. "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen looked at Li Xiaoyue in a dignified voice. At the same time, the person had reached the hospital bed. He looked at Jane with a frown and a frown. "She, she..." Li Xiaoyue swallowed hard, then he could hold down his heart. He was excited and hurried to say, "just foamed..." "Brush" once, Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes sharply rowed to Li Xiaoyue. "Really," Li Xiaoyue nodded hurriedly, "I thought it was my eyes spent for the first time, but after a while, Mo Mo''s hand moved again... It''s true!" "I''ll inform the doctor..." as soon as the nurse heard it, her eyes were shining. She hurriedly said, turned and ran out. Gu Beichen doesn''t know how to describe his mood at this moment. It seems that his heart can''t stand the force and wants to jump out of his chest. Mo''er Gu Beichen stared at Jian Mo deeply, his slender and powerful hand trembling uncontrollably. After nearly a year of waiting, he consumed all his emotions Even, sometimes he wondered if it was because he insisted on staying that Mo''er lived so hard. Every day he postpones, he will be more suspicious But even so, he hopes she can live and looks forward to the day she wakes up. The doctor on duty came quickly. Even, Jian Mo had just been pushed into the examination room, and Li Yunze magically arrived at the hospital. Gu Beichen sat on the chair at the door of the examination room, with his eyes slightly lowered and his arms supported on his knees. It seemed casual. In fact, it was because his nervous and trembling hands overlapped and drooped in front. "Beichen," Li Yunze patted Gu Beichen on the shoulder and looked at his brother''s fear painfully, "there is a response. To some extent, it is good." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but his thin lips had become a straight line. Li Xiaoyue walked back and forth nervously. With the passage of time, her unbearable heart contracted sharply and couldn''t breathe. She can''t stand such a situation just now. Think about Gu Beichen''s waiting every day for so long when he faced it Li Xiaoyue closed her eyes and tried to calm herself down so that her mood would not affect Gu Beichen. I don''t know how long it has been. Everyone feels that it has been so long for a whole century With a bang, the door of the examination room was pushed open from the inside. Gu Beichen was almost a conditioned reflex. With a "Teng" click, he stood up. However, he just stood up and didn''t move... The doctor looked at him with all kinds of emotions in his eagle eyes. Gu Beichen is afraid Even more scared than waiting for moer''s operation last time. Fear of just hope has become extravagant hope Li Yunze looked anxiously at Gu Beichen and suddenly became afraid. If Jian Mo only moves under the muscle reflex, it''s OK. In case, it''s a reflection Li Yunze suddenly dared not think down, but also stared at the doctor who came out. "Li Shao, Chen Shao..." the doctor came straight over, "Jian Mo......" Chapter 929 "Buzzing... Buzzing..." The mobile phone vibrated on the small table on one side, and Gu Beichen opened his eyes with a brush. He didn''t move and let the mobile phone vibrate there. He just looked at the outside with eagle eyes. In the East, the fish belly has been white, and the glimmer of light before dawn shows the dust that has not dispersed in the night. A tear moistened the corners of my eyes. Gu Beichen just looked out of the window quietly, just as before falling asleep Gu Beichen didn''t care until the vibration stopped. How many times?! He can''t remember how many times he woke up from his dream Every time, I repeat one thing. Mo''er made a slight movement and was pushed into the examination room. After a long wait, he couldn''t wait for the doctor to say whether she was awake or Is it fear or extravagance?! Gu Beichen doesn''t know. He just knows that he doesn''t know how long he can bear such a lonely sadness Mo''er, I wait for you to wake up every day. Can I... Wait for that day? Gu Beichen slowly closed his eyes. A drop of moisture in the corner of his eyes slowly slipped down and wound on his cold carved cheek. Finally, it disappeared into his neck. After a while, Gu Beichen calmed down. When he opened his eyes again, he had gathered away, because the sadness of the dream restored his consistent mood. He tilted his head, took his cell phone, looked at the phone he had just missed, it was Xiao Jing, and then replied "What?" Gu Beichen''s voice has a trace of dullness under the night. "Chu Shao began to act," Xiao Jing''s voice was a little dignified, "I''m afraid it will involve a lot." Gu Beichen didn''t say anything immediately. After a while, he made a faint "um" sound. Xiao Jing frowned slightly. He didn''t quite understand Gu Beichen''s idea, "Chen Shao..." "Let him toss..." Gu Beichen rubbed his eyebrows and said, "he''s on fire in his heart. If he doesn''t get out, he can''t do it." "But it''s so angry that it''s too much involved..." Xiao Jing said, "I''m afraid the subsequent problems are not small." "What can I do?" Gu Beichen sighed. Xiao Jing was silent. "I know..." he said, muttering in a low voice, "anyway, you accompany your wife and I''ll wipe my ass." "Huh?" Gu Beichen let out a faint sigh, and there was a dangerous smell in his voice. Xiao Jing grinned, "Hey, hey" smiled twice and said, "no, nothing... I asked, do you want me to deal with documents today?" Look at his dog leg During the war of resistance against Japan, it must have been the kind of people who were most able to take the helm and keep their lives. "You are so considerate of me," Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep. "It''s a waste of your courteous opportunity not to let you deal with it." "..." Xiao Jing grinned and answered happily, "yes, yes... Ha ha..." Gu Beichen coldly hangs up the phone directly. Xiao Jing listens to the beep inside and hums. "Waste your opportunity to be courteous..." Xiao Jing imitated Gu Beichen''s appearance, parroted, threw down his mobile phone and went to the bathroom. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen came to the ward early and brought breakfast to Li Xiaoyue from the hospital restaurant. Just like last night, Li Xiaoyue ate and watched Gu Beichen wash Jian Mo and do morning massage With such a man waiting for Mo Mo, she seems to have nothing to worry about. "I''m going to stay in Los Angeles..." Li Xiaoyue said. "Now I can feel the feeling that the girl wanted to come back!" "Yes." Gu Beichen was not surprised. "Are you going to someone else''s law firm or are you going to open it yourself?" Today''s Li Xiaoyue, after passing the court in California, is in a big fire in the legal world. Even if she opens a law firm, it''s understandable. "I haven''t decided yet..." Li Xiaoyue shrugged. "It''s almost the new year. I want to take a break. Let''s wait until the new year is over." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, "I''ve found you several offices of the law firm, and you can choose one that you like and convenient..." after a pause, he looked at Li Xiaoyue, "the design drawings of the law firm are drawn by Mo''er himself. There are designs in those places. You can use whichever you choose." "You husband and wife, one out of the room, one out of the design..." Li Xiaoyue smiled. "I''m a little stressed?!" "Mo Mo said, you invite us to dinner every week." Gu Beichen pondered slightly, remembering that Jian Mo was tired of being in his arms and had a charming voice, "he also said, please have a meal... You must have a big meal!" Li Xiaoyue looked at Gu Beichen sadly and felt that she had become particularly emotional since she set foot in Los Angeles and saw this man. "OK," Li Xiaoyue pretended not to see Gu Beichen''s mood and said with an eyebrow, "anyway, I don''t suffer." Li Xiaoyue didn''t refuse Gu Beichen''s kindness, not because of Jian Mo''s design, but because this man is keeping everything of Mo Mo in all ways In this case, how could she have the heart to refuse his kindness?! Li Xiaoyue''s law firm. After she cleaned up her apartment, she went to see it. Several locations are good, but one is better... Even after she saw the design, she knew that Momo guessed that she would choose that one. Now that it has been selected, Gu Beichen asks Xiao Jing to decorate and buy it. Emperor''s company includes food, drink, housing and transportation, almost all industrial chains... The decoration of a law firm was completed in less than a month. During this period, Li Xiaoyue has also handled various certificates of the law firm. The name of the law firm is very simple. It''s called ''Yue law firm''! The sound of "crackling" firecrackers came from a distance. On New Year''s Eve, the joy of the new year could be heard everywhere. "Daddy, look..." Jian Jie took a piece of paper in his hand, and some little proudly fanned his eyes, "my new year gift to Mommy." Gu Beichen took the paper handed over by Jian Jie, on which is a relatively simple two-dimensional code. "The cable is not straight enough, it is estimated that it will be more difficult to sweep it out." "Really?" Jane Jie frowned slightly, "where?" Gu Beichen put down the paper and pointed to Jian Jie, "here..." "Then I''ll draw it again." Jian Jie picked his eyebrows and went to the temporary bedroom next door to draw a QR code. Gu Beichen gently smiled at the corners of his mouth. After watching Jian Jie''s figure leave, he converged his eyes and began to massage Jian mo. At the right time, snowflakes floated outside. It began to be small, and gradually became large. It was like goose feathers falling, but in an instant, it was covered with silver between heaven and earth. Gu Beichen picked up Jian Mo''s hand, gently kissed it on his lips, "there are six days to new year''s Eve..." his ink pupil stared at Jian Mo deeply, "Mo''er, will you give me a new year gift?" At the same time, Gu Beichen slowly closed his eyes and collected the bitterness of the most lonely waiting Chapter 930 One night, the whole city of Los Angeles was covered with snow. The next day, before dawn, the snow didn''t stop, but it was smaller Gu Beichen held Jian Mo''s hand and fell asleep by her hospital bed. The nurse came in to patrol the room. Her voice was very quiet. However, Gu Beichen was disturbed. Almost the moment the door was opened, he woke up. "Chen Shao," said the nurse. After nearly a year of "getting along" with Gu Beichen, she was able to relax a little. "Why don''t you go wash first?" "Hmm..." Gu Beichen answered softly and put down Jian Mo''s hand. However, when I put it down, I saw Jian Mo''s hand, which was squeezed a little red after being held by myself all night, and I couldn''t help but frown. "Chen Shao, what''s the matter?" Seeing Gu Beichen''s look, the nurse asked carefully. "It''s all right..." Gu Beichen said indifferently, got up and went to the bathroom, twisted a hot towel and put his hands on Jane mo. The nurse looked at Gu Beichen''s actions and pricked the corners of her mouth. She always felt heavy in her heart. The feeling added to her heart for a while. Gu Beichen carefully applied Jian Mo''s hand. In the eagle''s eyes, it was all the heartache under guilt. I didn''t know how last night, so I fell asleep holding her hand Mo''er was unconscious again. He felt uncomfortable and couldn''t take it out of his hand Gu Beichen''s actions stopped, and the uncontrollable pain in the bottom of his eyes gradually spread. However, when he raised his eyes, he collected them all. "Good morning, Mo''er..." Gu Beichen said softly to Jian Mo, and kissed her on the forehead. "I''ll wash first." Then he stared deeply at Jane Mo, and then got up and went to the bathroom. However, at the moment of turning around, a touch of loss spread from the bottom of his eyes Looking at himself in the mirror, Gu Beichen suddenly felt disgusted. He clearly believed that Mo''er would wake up. Why did his heart start to be unstable? What is he sad about? Since Mo''er can wake up, what is he losing?! Gu Beichen drooped his eyes, and his dense eyelashes gathered all the emotions from the bottom of his eyes. He is not firm enough, but waiting is such suffering... It is not his body, but his heart. The snow outside has stopped. Jian Jie said good morning to Jian mo. accompanied by mommy and daddy, after eating the breakfast sent by grandma, he went downstairs to play with the children in the children''s ward of the hospital. "The new year is coming soon," Cen Lanxi looked at his son who had hardly left the hospital painfully. "Do you want to take Xiaomo back together?" It''s not a big deal for the family to have a "Ward" with high-end facilities at home. Gu Beichen was silent and shook his head. "No..." he raised his eyes and looked at Cen Lanxi. "If Mo''er wakes up, it''s more convenient here." CEN Lanxi''s lips moved and wanted to say something, but at last they all turned into a dark sigh. She doesn''t want to stop her son from doing anything. He likes it After living for so long, she was strong at first, and then fell ill... She came all the way through ups and downs and saw Jane Mo''s son''s sadness. Only then did she understand that people are the happiest if they are healthy and safe together. The sound of "bang" came. When Gu Beichen frowned, he saw Xiao Jing hurried in. Seeing Cen Lanxi in his mouth, he swallowed back abruptly, "good morning, old lady!" "It''s noisy, so loud..." Cen Lanxi said discontentedly, and then looked at Gu Beichen. "If you have something to do, you''ll be busy first. I''ll go first." "Well, be careful on the road..." Gu Beichen answered. When Cen Lanxi left, he looked at Xiao Jing with dissatisfaction. He grinned and touched his nose. After waiting for him to leave, he muttered. "What?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows and looked at Xiao Jing. "Chen Shao, the news from Yuncheng came out..." Xiao Jing''s look suddenly became dignified. "It was worse than we expected." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, got up and went to the "office" next door. When he opened the news network on the other side of Yuncheng, he glanced around. His cold face was obviously dignified. "You''ll be there right now," Gu Beichen said in a low voice. "Let Xiao Nan take some people over too. I want Zixiao to be absolutely safe." "Yes!" Xiao Jing answered and didn''t say anything more. He turned and walked out. It snowed heavily on the road all night. Although the snow sweepers are cleaning up, the expressway has been closed and the aircraft is basically extending Xiao Jing had no choice but to take the train and try to reach Yuncheng in the fastest time. At the moment, Yuncheng has become a sensation. No one expected that in successive months, starting a seemingly insignificant case will eventually lead to a string of characters. In fact, the collusion between government and business is well known. Usually, you can scold a few words at most on weekdays, but once things are exposed and see the hidden things in the dark, no one can be really calm. What makes us not calm most is that Zhang Jia of Yuncheng''s first family is involved, and even plays the most intuitive role. As a result, the Centennial aristocratic family was closed down, and the family figures Zhang Zhengtang and some people involved in Zhangjia had to be investigated. The winter wind is chilly inland. Chu Zixiao stood in front of the car and looked coldly at the parties in cleaning up and sealing up Zhang Jia. In the bottom of his eyes, he had a sense of indifference. "Officer Fang, can you give me a few minutes to talk to my ''friend'' over there?" Zhang Zhengtang asked. Zhang Jia has been intertwined in Yuncheng for many years. The relationship between the parties is there. Officer Fang will not disagree. Zhang Zhengtang walked to Chu Zixiao. His sharp eyes were full of anger. "The taste of being calculated," Chu Zixiao raised his eyebrows, "okay?" "Chu Zixiao!" Zhang Zhengtang gnashed his teeth in anger. Chu Zixiao said coldly, "you really shouldn''t provoke me. You know very well that I''m not such a good pinch..." Zhang Zhengtang never thought of it. He just wanted to catch Chu Zixiao. In the end, not only did everything go to waste because of the sudden disappearance of Niannian, but also he lost the whole Zhang family. "Do you think I''ll be knocked down?" Zhang Zhengtang sneered, "Chu Zixiao, fight with me. You''re still young." Chu Zixiao smiled, and his smile was as cold as the cold wind in winter. "After you go in, will you have a chance to come out?" He said softly, "do you think it''s more convenient to get rid of me, or you, those complicated people?" Zhang Zhengtang looked slightly at Chu Zixiao He said slowly, "I''m a lawyer, but you seem to have forgotten the person behind me..." his voice was not light or heavy. "Do you think it''s better to offend my little uncle, or deal with you directly?" His words fell lightly, and Zhang Nian stopped foolishly as she walked forward. At that moment, she seemed to be left with a thunder in her head. She didn''t know how to react Chapter 931 The surrounding air is a little dignified and even stiff. Zhang Zhengtang''s eyes became sharp and filled with anger under the blood. Because Chu Zixiao is telling the truth. Although Gu Beichen''s influence is in Los Angeles, if he really wants to protect Chu Zixiao, he must be foolproof. Besides, which of the people around Gu Beichen is a simple character? If we really talk about the contacts in politics and business, coupled with the current situation, it is obvious that Chu Zixiao has the absolute advantage. "I won''t interfere in the later things," Chu Zixiao smiled softly, his eyes cold and cold. "Uncle, I hope you can come out safely... See if there is a chance for me to be your son-in-law." The voice of ridicule, without the slightest cover up. Looking at Zhang Zhengtang''s appearance about to explode, Chu Zixiao just sneered, turned around and wanted to get in the car and leave Just as he opened the door, Chu Zixiao''s action stopped, and then looked away. Zhang Nian''s mouth is tight, and a pair of eyes are mixed with water mist. After hearing the news, she hurried back to Yuncheng. She never thought that the first act was like this What''s more, I didn''t expect to meet Chu Zixiao again a few months later under such circumstances. Tears, under the gently flapping eyelashes, fall. "Uncle, I hope you can come out safely... See if there is a chance for me to be your son-in-law," made Zhang Nian tremble all over. "Nian Nian..." Zhang Zhengtang didn''t expect that Zhang Nian would come back at this time, with a look of consternation. Zhang Nian didn''t move or even go to see Zhang Zhengtang. He just looked at Chu Zixiao with a pair of eyes What does it feel like now? It''s like someone pressed her on the chopping block and cut her at will, but she didn''t feel like she died at once. Tears become extremely hot in the cold wind. Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian with deep eyes. There was no half expression on Junyi''s face. However, in the depths of those eyes, there are gradually unknown vortices pouring out. "Chu Zixiao..." Zhang Nian cried with trembling lips, "do you have to take revenge by such means?" She clenched her hands tightly. At this moment, she seemed to forget that she was the last person to bear the whole thing But what can I do? Her parents made mistakes first. No matter how, she has been humble to the dust. Chu Zixiao narrowed his eyes slightly. He didn''t speak, but when another wave of tears gushed out of Zhang Nian, he forcibly took back his eyes, turned around and got on the bus. The car drove away with a roaring sound, and the roar became particularly harsh. Zhang Nian hung his eyes, his cheeks and nose were red, but he didn''t know whether it was because of the cold wind or sadness. Yuncheng Zhang''s involvement seemed to be shrouded in a faint layer of sadness this year ago. Chu Zixiao''s prediction is correct. Gu Beichen can''t let him have an accident. The arrival of Xiao Jing and Xiao Nan will give some face to the people on the bright and dark sides. However, under such circumstances, many people are silent. If you want a person to keep a secret, it is definitely not his guarantee... But that he will never have a chance to speak. As time goes by, some people are sad, some are happy, some are confused, and some are full of hope The new year is coming with the sound of firecrackers. "Good morning, Mo''er!" Gu Beichen gently kissed Jian Mo on his forehead, "Happy New Year!" Then he smiled softly at her. In this way, there is no reply. Good morning and good night. Gu Beichen is doing it every day It is said that it only takes 45 days to form a person''s habit, but he has no habit at all after so long. Early in the morning, many people came to the ward one after another. Everyone and Jane Mo said happy new year and chatted happily with each other. It''s like home here. My family is here in the New Year! Li Yunze leaned on the door with his arms around his chest, and suddenly had a new idea when he looked at the chattering of the people in the room. In fact, Huakang can invest in a hospital with the theme of "home" atmosphere. Maybe patients will feel much better Tut Tut, at this time, he can still have such a business mind. It seems that he can be proud of the mall without surgery in the future. Li Yunze was running the train all over his head, but when his eyes fell on Gu Beichen who was with Jian Mo, he was out of control, and his heart was always heavy to sigh I live like this day by day. As if inadvertently, this year has passed... Office workers are struggling with post holiday diseases one by one. After the new year, something happened. For example, some people don''t understand why Zhang Zhengtang is still alive in prison For example, every time Shen Chu came to Jian Mo, he either spoke strangely or was blown up by a sudden phone call. For example, Li Xiaoyue''s lawyer received his first lawsuit years later For example, star has learned to walk, and some of the tones that he couldn''t articulate before can be clearer. What makes people feel magical is that the first sentence he learned is not ''father'' and ''mother'', but ''stone'' Every time Xi Cheng heard star shouting ''stone, stone'' excitedly, he would convulse uncontrollably. Then, I always want to see Shi Shaoqin''s reaction. But finally found that the man had no temper in front of star. Even, under such a "nickname", he can smile and make people feel intoxicated. ¡­¡­ "It''s raining..." Gu Beichen pointed to his belly and gently rubbed Jian Mo''s hand. "Mo''er, this is the first rain of this year. There is a trace of cold in the hazy, which doesn''t seem to be the beginning of spring." Taking back his deep sight, Gu Beichen''s ink pupil stared at Jian Mo, and a shallow smile spilled from his thin lips. "Mo''er, you''ve been sleeping for a year..." he sighed, "so lazy, it''s time to sleep enough... Are you going to wake up?" No one answered Gu Beichen. His fingers had inadvertently rubbed Jian Mo''s finger with a ring. There was a tattoo of his name She said she wanted to be closer to his heart. She said... She just married her heart to love! Gu Beichen''s vision was far-reaching, "I sometimes wonder if you will give me a surprise..." he smiled and looked down at Jian Mo, "it''s like playing on TV or in my dream. Inadvertently, you wake up?" "Mo''er, the gift I gave you is ready..." Gu Beichen''s voice is always soft. "I drew a lot of QR codes and said a lot of love words. You don''t want to know what gift I gave you... And what I said to you?" Space, in addition to Gu Beichen''s words, the silence is a little terrible. He was chatting with Jane Mo, even if there was no response "Actually, I''m not greedy..." Gu Beichen said and finally lowered his eyes. "I just want you to say good morning and good night with me every day... That''s all!" Something was burning on the back of Jian Mo''s hand, showing sadness At the same time, Jian Mo''s fingers moved slightly, just under Gu Beichen''s blurred vision! Gu Beichen forgot his reaction. He just stared at Jian Mo''s hand and didn''t move for a long time. He didn''t know whether he was dazzled or because he just trembled, which made Jane Mo''s hand move His breathing was a little short, and Gu Beichen''s thin lips were tightly together. Too many dreams made him feel that everything seemed to be in a dream. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen''s voice tightened because of tension. "You... Can you give me a little response?" Chapter 932 In the words of begging, there was total tension. Gu Beichen''s eyes are burning, and he doesn''t want to miss any possibility However, Jane Mo didn''t respond to him any more. There was self mockery across the corner of his mouth. Gu Beichen painfully closed his eyes and gradually collected all the expectations and beggings under his eyes. Only one year! It''s only one year since Mo''er was unconscious Under such a low probability as Yunze said, how could he expect Mo''er to wake up so soon?! Li Yunze opened the door and came in. He was dressed in a white coat. He always looked a little different from his usual evil charm. Well, it was obvious that he should be well dressed. "What?" Li Yunze felt Gu Beichen''s breath and frowned slightly. Gu Beichen was still in a mood at the bottom of his eyes. His voice was a little hoarse and said, "Yunze, I think I can always have fantasies recently..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen raised his eyes, "I always feel that Mo''er is going to wake up, and even the nerve has a reflex." Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen. He was a calm man. He had completely lost his calmness for a simple mo. In fact, it''s really hard for Jane Mo to wake up... Even very little. However, he dared not tell Beichen such a conclusion. People always have faith when there is hope, don''t they? Li Yunze personally gave Jian Mo a routine inspection. Everything was ok, but there was no data to show that Jian Mo had signs of waking up But there are some things that data can''t give. Gu Beichen went to the bathroom. Li Yunze took a look at his back and finally looked at Jian Mo, "Jian mo... If you love Beichen, can you work with him?" He tries to wait for you to wake up, and you try to wake up for him Li Yunze stared at Jian Mo deeply. After a while, a touch of emotion suddenly crossed his mind. Then he took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to he Yining. Li Yunze: meet me tonight! Simple five words, why would you rather read for a long time She doesn''t know what Li Yunze wants to do this time, but sometimes people are really tired... She tossed about a past alone. Do you want to toss on? "Dr. he," a nurse''s hurried voice came, "there were a series of car accidents nearby. Many people were sent to the clinic. The director asked you to help." As soon as he Yining listened, he couldn''t think about anything. Subconsciously, the mobile phone was put on the desk, got up quickly, took the stethoscope and ran out Li Yunze, who had just entered the elevator and couldn''t wait for a text message reply for a long time, called ¡­¡­ Night, in the rain, seems to come earlier. After nightfall, the light rain, which was originally just intermittent, gradually became heavier, and "clattering" hit the glass window, with a chaotic rhythm. Gu Beichen sat by the bed. Maybe because of the rain, he was inexplicably sad. "Today''s mood is a little bad," Gu Beichen didn''t hide his sadness. "Mo''er, in a year, I found that I have become a little hypocritical." Pulled down the corners of his mouth, Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. She "sleeps" so peacefully every day, which always makes him have an illusion that she can wake up the next moment. Before mor depression, although he knew the symptoms, he couldn''t feel it. Now, as if he had a fantasy disease, he suddenly realized that the torture of worrying about gain and loss is a little bit of eating away his inner hope Gu Beichen felt that such a feeling made people despair. One night, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo talked a lot, no order, some messy... But in the end, they turned into extravagant expectations. "You said you would have a daughter for me..." Gu Beichen gently opened his mouth, leaned down and gently pasted his cheek on Jian Mo''s hand. He didn''t dare to force. "I haven''t bred a child belonging to us with you from beginning to end. Do you really have the heart to let me regret?" Gu Beichen gently closed his eyes and moved Jian Mo''s hand away from his cheek He was afraid and fell asleep when he pressed her. It was already more than three o''clock in the morning, and the rain outside was much heavier. It hit the window, and the rhythm was chaotic, which made people feel confused. Gu Beichen hasn''t gone to bed for many days. He lies down beside Jian Mo every day and feels her breath. Only then can he tell himself that Mo''er will wake up. "Mo''er," Gu Beichen closed his eyes with a faint sadness in his voice, mixed with the sound of the rain, "I''m afraid. What I wake up waiting for is that I can never recover... I''m really afraid. I''ve never been afraid." Gu Beichen''s voice was choked, "that... Is too cruel to me, do you understand?" His voice fell, and a tear spilled from Jane Mo''s closed eyes and meandered down the corners of her eyes... Burning her skin. On the heart rate instrument, the fluctuation of heart rate becomes flustered, and the number of displayed heart rate also rises a lot in a short time, as if it represents the monitored person. At the moment, the mood is turning and fluctuating. Rainy night, long people impetuous. When there was a glimmer of light in the East, it rained all night and gradually stopped Jian Mo slowly opened his sour eyes. His goal was a clean ceiling. In the air, there was a faint smell of the hospital. Weakly fanned her eyes, she moved her eyes slightly, and finally fell on Gu Beichen who was sleeping on the hospital bed The corners of her mouth inadvertently spilled a faint smile, and Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s sleeping appearance. After a while, she raised her hand weakly and gently crossed Gu Beichen''s frown, trying to smooth it out for him. The slight movement made Gu Beichen suddenly open his eyes. He looked at the hand gently shaking in front of him. After a few seconds, he sat up straight with a pair of eagle eyes and stared at Jian Mo tightly. Jian Mo and Gu Beichen''s eyes were right up. Her complexion was not very good, but a faint smile of heartache could be seen at the bottom of her eyes. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and then laughed at himself, "Mo''er, my dream is more and more fantasy..." Jane Mo frowned slightly and didn''t react. "Before, I just dreamed that you had signs of waking up," Gu Beichen lowered his eyes, "but today, I directly dreamed that you woke up..." he mocked himself. "Am I too urgent?" Jian Mo finally understood what Gu Beichen was saying. Her nose suddenly became sour, and a thin mist appeared at the bottom of her eyes. "Ah Chen..." she smiled at the corner of her mouth, "good morning!" "Brush" for a moment, Gu Beichen raised his eyes sharply and looked at Jian Mo in surprise. Jane Mo''s tears flickered at the bottom of her eyes. "You said... It''s raining, I should wake up..." her eyes were red, "you''re not dreaming." As she spoke, she slowly raised her hand and gently touched Gu Beichen''s cheek with her finger. "Feel it? It''s not a dream..." The soft touch made Gu Beichen suddenly realize that this time, he was really not dreaming. He was awake! He is not in a dream So "Mo''er?!" "Husband..." Jane Mo said, tears overflowing. "How can I be willing to let you alone?" She sucked her nose, and her voice was hoarse because she had been in bed for a long time. "How can I bear to make you afraid... And how can I not keep my word with you?" "I also want to say good morning and good night to you every day..." Jian Mo''s voice choked. "Eat with you, travel with you, and Xiaojie and our future children..." "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen finally couldn''t control his hoarse voice. He already got up and deeply kissed Jian Mo''s choking lips Not a dream! This is not a dream Full of kisses under complex emotions and demands under hegemony. Gu Beichen was even afraid of this moment. He was still in a dream... After all, he had too many such dreams. The corners of Jane Mo''s mouth were numb when she was kissed. She had just woke up and was a little confused because of lack of oxygen. "Well..." Jane Mo shouted. Gu Beichen left her lips like an electric shock, and the eagle''s eyes looked at Jian Mo nervously. Jane Mo looked at the man painfully, looked at his carefully, and her eyes became more red. "Ah Chen, this is not a dream..." she really felt his panic and fear at a loss, "I woke up..." The sentence "this is not a dream, I wake up" made Gu Beichen feel the most beautiful voice in the world. Yes, even if he kisses Mo''er, he is afraid that his dream will become more and more real, and his sadness after waking up will be expanded more and more. His Mo''er, she is saying ''good morning'' to him, and she calls him ''husband'' "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen''s voice showed the magnetism in the dark, "thank you, thank you... Remember the way back." Gu Beichen leaned over, closed his eyes, kissed Jian Mo''s cheek, felt her breath, and shouted her name again and again If two people really love each other, there will be no obstacles that cannot be crossed. Even though he is afraid every day, he is never willing to give up And so is his Mo''er! Mo''er, everything is over You will never let me leave again! Jane Mo lets Gu Beichen kiss her skin, and his lips burn her newly recovered nerves... Every kiss seems to be pouring out her thoughts since she fell asleep. Ah Chen, thank you for waiting for me without giving up... You are working hard for me, and my efforts are also for you! Chapter 933 Jane Mo raised her hand and circled Gu Beichen''s neck. Her voice was sour and said gently, "because of your waiting, why can''t I come back?" She sniffed, "ah Chen, you don''t know how much I love you and how reluctant I am to wait for you every day." "I know, I know..." Gu Beichen still kissed Jian Mo, "Mo''er, I love you... Don''t leave me again, no matter what form, okay?" Jian Mo''s eyes were full of tears. She heard the sadness waiting from Gu Beichen''s voice. "Ah Chen, in the future, I will try my best to protect myself..." Jian Mo cried, "because I also love you... I don''t want you to be sad and sad for me." There was a hot breath across Jane Mo''s skin, and her body trembled uncontrollably. Suddenly, tears broke the bank uncontrollably. This man, from recognition to experience ups and downs, is such a high person But now he''s crying! Jane Mo''s heart is in pain. She hates waking up so long and polishing the man''s pride. "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo cried, her voice choking with heartache. "I''ll never leave you again, never leave, forever!" Gu Beichen sealed Jian Mo''s lips again. This time, there was no deep kiss, but the lips of the two people fit together Gu Beichen closed his eyes. He didn''t want Jian Mo because he felt guilty and didn''t want to He was just so happy that he forgot to control his emotions. Jane Mo also closed her eyes and quietly felt all the emotions given to her by this man. She didn''t know how long she slept, but she knew it must be a long time Ah Chen, thank you for waiting for me firmly and accompanying me, so that I can firmly want to wake up bit by bit. To be your wife is the most correct decision I have made in my life... Because you are so worthy of my trust for life, aren''t you?! Gu Beichen and Jian Mo''s lips trembled slightly. At this moment, their thoughts surged, and they were suddenly afraid of losing each other That feeling is like that if the other party disappears, your life will not be perfect again. There was a sound at the door of the ward, and Li Yunze pushed the door open in some confusion I had a major operation last night and didn''t sleep yet. I came to give Jane Mo a routine examination first. Alas, his brother has done nothing! But when Li Yunze saw the scene in front of him, he was confused Even, for a moment, he thought Gu Beichen''s fantasy was serious and made Jian Mo look "awake" and kissed her. After all, when he checked yesterday, Jane Mo didn''t wake up at all. "Beichen?!" Li Yunze shouted softly, with dignified eyes. He was suddenly afraid that Beichen was "Crazy"! Gu Beichen slowly left Jian Mo''s lips, turned back and looked at Li Yunze with scarlet eyes. A few seconds later... He smiled. Li Yunze''s eyes lit up in an instant. He walked to the hospital bed with big steps and looked at Jane Mo whose eyes were red with tears. The corners of his mouth trembled and couldn''t speak. "Shit!" Li Yunze held back his words for a long time. He looked at Jian Mo and suddenly felt mixed. "Jian Mo, good..." Li Yunze''s fatigue all night disappeared instantly. Looking at Jian Mo, his nose was sour. This woman is so worthy of Beichen''s love As a doctor, he knows very well... It''s a miracle that he can survive such a heavy car accident. But now, only a year later, the woman woke up. "Yunze, thank you..." Jane Mo said with red eyes and uncontrollable emotion, "thank you for giving me a chance to survive." "Thank you for yourself," Li Yunze smiled, "and thank Beichen." In this world, if it''s not because she can''t give up, how can she try to wake up? That person is not anyone, not even Jian Jie... But Gu Beichen who will work together for a lifetime. The news that Jane Mo woke up, however, soon spread. CEN Lanxi, Gu Moyuan, Su Zhenqi, Su Anyuan, Lu Hanyu, Li Jiyuan... These elders wept with joy on the way one by one. "Hurry up," Cen Lanxi urged the driver, "Xiao Mo woke up so long. I don''t know if he''s hungry?" Gu Moyuan looked at his wife and said to the driver, "drive carefully..." then looked at Cen Lanxi, "people are awake. Don''t worry. In this moment, safety first." CEN Lanxi just wanted to refute, but think about it. It''s still drizzling and foggy outside. It''s better to be safe. However, I think so, but the urgency in my heart still can''t speak. Compared with these old people, the younger generation, like crazy people, poured into the hospital. Li Xiaoyue and Mo Shaochen are working on a case recently. In a nearby city, I heard that Jian Mo woke up, especially Li Xiaoyue. His heart is like an arrow. He can''t get away and scolds angrily! Su Junli, who was in other places, heard that Jian Mo woke up, and some irresponsibly put down his things and took the latest flight back to Los Angeles "Brother, did Mommy really wake up?" Jane Jie looked around in the car, a little worried. The school is a long way from the hospital. In addition, Jian Jie, whom Chu Zixiao picked up first, delayed some time "Well, wake up." Chu Zixiao''s voice was soft, but there was a sense of vicissitudes that could not be concealed. Such vicissitudes do not belong to him Jane Jie''s little face was full of laughter. He grabbed his schoolbag. In his bright eyes, he was looking forward to the joy, even a little nervous. Chu Zixiao looked at the little guy in the back seat from the rearview mirror and his eyes were slightly blurred When Chu Zixiao took Jian Jie to the hospital, both the ward and the corridor were already overcrowded. "Is this a collective that doesn''t work?" Chu Zixiao looked at Yu Ziyun and joked. Yu Ziyun shrugged. "I care about my subordinates... There are not many bosses like me." Chu Zixiao smiled and teased, and then entered the ward with Jian Jie. "Jane, there''s a voice in the ward, but there''s an empty one. "Mom?" Chu Zixiao looked at Gu CI. Jane Jie looked for it without blinking, and her little hand shook it nervously, for fear that it would be everyone''s dream. "Xiaojie..." Luo Xiaomi suddenly jumped up to Jian Jie with excitement, regardless of whether he disliked it or not, ''Baji'' kissed him on the face, "my aunt woke up, really woke up..." "What about Mommy?" Jane Jie asked angrily. Luo Xiaomi, let me kiss again and I''ll tell you! Jian Jie then turned coldly and went to Gu Nanyi, "aunt, where''s Mommy?" "The inspection has gone..." Gu Nanyi glanced at the abandoned daughter and said with a smile, "Beichen will accompany him. After the inspection, he will come back." "Oh..." Jane Jie answered, and then went aside with his schoolbag. Some people were curious about what he was holding. Unfortunately, the little guy looked proud and charming. No one said it. He just said it was a gift for Mommy Suddenly, everyone looked at each other, and their eyes were full of curiosity... I don''t know what gift Jian Jie had prepared for Jian mo. Chapter 934 J fiddled with the magic cube in his hand and looked lazily at Jian Jie. "Are you sure you can sweep it out this time?" "Of course..." Jane Jie glanced. J approached Jian Jie, "I didn''t prepare a gift for Jian Mo, but I wanted to ask for one..." Jian Jie glanced at J, with a look of disgust. In the ward, everyone was happy but anxious waiting for the examination results. In the examination room, Li Yunze led several doctors to do a comprehensive examination of Jian mo Gu Beichen was dressed in casual clothes. Some lazy hands leaned against the wall with pockets, as if he was a little tired and too happy. He was afraid that he would lose his strength when he was in a moment. "Chen Shao, I want to ask for leave..." Xiao Jing endured and finally felt that it was better to start first. Gu Beichen glanced at Xiao Jing, "huh?" Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth. When he looked at Beichen, he was completely dazzled by happiness and lost his calmness in the past. "I mean..." Xiao Jing touched his nose. "I want to ask for leave!" "What are you doing?" Gu Beichen asked again. Xiao Jing was a little depressed. "What are you doing? Of course you want to take a big holiday..." he solemnly began to count his hard work for Gu Beichen. In addition, he promised his holiday, "now madam Shao wakes up and doesn''t let me take a holiday, can''t it make sense?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and agreed with Xiao Jing. Xiao Jing''s eyes lit up. "Then you mean... Give me a holiday?!" "I didn''t say..." Gu Beichen said faintly, "I just agree with your words." Poof Xiao Jing felt a little hurt. "Chen Shao, don''t play like this!" Gu Beichen took back his sight, and his thin lips overflowed with a shallow smile, "Xiao Jing..." "What?!" Xiao Jing asked angrily. "How long have you been with me?" Gu Beichen looked at the door of the examination room and asked in a far-reaching voice. Xiao Jing said without thinking, "fifteen years..." Gu Beichen smiled, "yes, it''s been 15 years." He glanced at Xiao Jing. "You haven''t had a holiday for so long. You really need a holiday." Xiao Jing''s heart tightened suddenly. Mingming was touched by something strange in his heart. However, he pretended to say on his face, "right..." "You can decide the time yourself," Gu Beichen took back his sight, "as long as you want." After a pause, he looked at Xiao Jing again, "but remember to come back..." Xiao Jing''s heart has been surging with all kinds of emotions... Finally, they all turned into feelings. Remember to come back He and Chen Shao''s 15 years of friendship, Chen Shao remembers that even if they are hard and tired, it''s worth it for this man. However, in the near future, Xiao Jing feels that he has been buried by Gu Beichen Specifically, the man was too dark and tied him up with emotion. Then... Gu Beichen and Jian Mo went to have fun. He was working as a CEO with the salary of an assistant. The comprehensive inspection lasted nearly two hours. When Li Yunze pushed Jian Mo out, there was a relaxed smile on each face. Looking at their faces, Gu Beichen finally fell down with a slight emotion Come forward, Gu Beichen squatted down and gently hugged Jian mo. Jane Mo put her cheek on his heart and rubbed it gently. While listening to his heartbeat, she smiled and said, "Yunze said that after a while of cultivation and recovery of physical strength and muscle tissue, I can be like a normal person." "Well, I''ll accompany you..." Gu Beichen answered softly, and the smile from the corners of his mouth spread to the bottom of his eyes in an instant. "Well, you speak slowly, I''ll wake up..." Li Yunze said, pretending to be very tired, "Alas, abuse the dog!" The words fell, and he had turned around and muttered something in his mouth. The doctors left one after another with a relaxed smile on their faces This year, the medical staff of the whole Huakang hospital watched Gu Beichen fall in love. Today, Jane Mo can wake up. They even think it''s not a miracle at all, but a matter of course! "They must be in a hurry. Let''s go back first, huh?" Gu Beichen loosened Jian Mo and asked softly. Jane Mo raised her eyebrows, "OK." Gu Beichen got up with a smile and pushed Jian Mo and Xiao Jing in the wheelchair to the elevator. When she got to the floor, Jian Mo looked at the crowded VIP ward area just like the market and smiled brightly. Everyone asked about the inspection results. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo answered with a smile. Suddenly, the smile on Jane Mo''s face froze slightly, just looking at the small figure in front Jane Jie didn''t move. There was a little water mist in her bright eyes. J glanced. "Didn''t you just say you wanted to give Jane a hug?" Jian Jie looked up at J, "but I suddenly don''t want to hold..." "Why?" Jane jabbed her mouth and said nothing. Gu Beichen pushed Jian Mo to come forward. Jian Mo looked at Jian Jie. His nose was sour and looked at the little guy who had grown tall. His eyes were red again when he was out of control. "Cry, ugly!" Jane Jaran said. Just as Jane Mo opened her arms, he rubbed forward awkwardly. However, at the moment of being held by Jane Mo, Jane Jie couldn''t control it and cried out with a "wow". Originally, because Jane Mo woke up, the inspection results were very good and filled the happy floor. Suddenly, everyone''s nose was sour because of Jane Jie''s cry. Here, many people know that the little guy has been blaming himself. If he didn''t have to take the bus, Mommy might not lie in the hospital bed and don''t wake up. Gu Beichen squatted down and gently stroked Jian Jie. "Mommy woke up and should be happy, shouldn''t she?" "I''m just happy..." said Jane Jie with a choked mouth. "I''m so happy, so I cry with joy." No one reveals Jian Jie''s hard mouth, but he loves him more Jane Mo just woke up. Everyone was afraid of affecting her physical recovery, so she dispersed first. "I made lunch and sent it over," Gu CI said with a smile. "What would Jane like to eat?" "I just woke up. Have some nutritious porridge?" CEN Lanxi answered, "I''ll go back and cook. I''ll send it later." Jian Mo looked at Cen Lanxi and suddenly felt a little at a loss CEN Lanxi didn''t say anything more. The case had just been closed and Jian Mo had an accident before she could repair the relationship. Fortunately, she wakes up now, as long as she works hard... She can''t embarrass her son in the middle. Before long, the people in the ward dispersed. Chu Zixiao looked at Jian Mo quietly. From beginning to end, he didn''t come forward to say hello to her... Until he finally left with Gu Ci and didn''t say a word to Jian mo. "Ah Chen..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen wiped Jian Mo''s hand, and the skilled bit guard should be skilled. Jane Mo looked at the door of the ward suspiciously. She just looked at Gu Beichen and asked, "I think..." she frowned slightly. "Zixiao is a little strange?" Chapter 935 Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, "as soon as you wake up, you care about him?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth, then wrinkled her nose, "it''s so sour!" Gu Beichen smiled and didn''t speak. Jian Mo didn''t ask any more. After all, there are Jian Jie and j in the ward. She mentioned too much about her relationship with Chu Zixiao in front of her children, which is always bad "Jane Mo," J pulled aside his chair and sat down, "I''m already in Luoyang University. I''m in the computer department at the beginning of this spring!" Jane Mo''s eyes lit up and said teasingly, "that''s not what you''re good at? Crush others every minute..." "Must!" J tilted his mouth and had a proud face. "But I don''t have a name yet!" Jane was stunned, looked at Gu Beichen, and then seemed to think of something. The corner of her mouth overflowed with a smile and asked, "be my brother?" "Hum!" J hummed softly. Jane Jie turned his eyes with a unbearable look on his face. "Just think, and pretend to be someone else begging you..." he paused, and he was dissatisfied. "Mommy, if J became your brother, wouldn''t he become my little uncle?" As soon as J heard this, his face was even more arrogant, "if I became Gu Beichen''s brother, it would be your little uncle!" "..." Jane Jie wrinkled his nose. "OK, OK, Mommy will think of your name later... Anyway, don''t give too much hope. Your IQ is not too high. Now you''ve slept for another year, which may affect the development of brain intelligence." Jane Mo took a smoke from the corner of her mouth. "Jane Jie, if you don''t tease me, can you die?!" "Hum!" Jian Jie proudly made a face at Jian Mo, and then went to get his schoolbag. "Mommy, it''s for you..." He took out a piece of paper in his book folder and handed it to Jian mo. his bright eyes were full of expectation. Jane Mo took it and saw it was a QR code. She was stunned at first, and then looked at Jane Jie, "did you draw it?" "Of course!" Jane Mo smiled, took the mobile phone on the bedside table and scanned the QR code "Mommy, love you, with the love of me and Xiao Yan!" Jane Mo''s nose was sour in an instant, but the smile from the corners of her mouth spread. Jian Jie kept staring at Jian Mo and saw that she was not in a bad mood because of "Xiaoyan", so he took out the real gift from her schoolbag. It''s a picture frame. Jane Mo raised her eyes and looked at Jane Jie, with curiosity in the bottom of her eyes. "This is the real gift..." Jane Jie handed the photo frame to Jane mo. Jane Mo took it and drooped her eyes with curiosity When she saw the picture, her mood at this moment can really be described by five flavors. In the picture Jian Jie rides on Gu Beichen''s neck. Gu Beichen kneels on one knee and kisses Jian Mo''s swollen stomach, while Jian Mo kisses Jian Jie''s mouth The sun penetrated the four of them, full of happiness. This is a family photo and the only one! Jane Mo''s heart is filled up in an instant. Without the depression of just losing Xiao Yan, and without the original loss and remorse At this moment, Jane Mo was grateful. After losing, she gained something else. Xiao Yan didn''t leave them. He just went to heaven and became a lovely little angel Jian Mo''s hand, gently across the photo, Jian Jie, Gu Beichen, to the last bulge of the stomach. I don''t know why, the baby''s crisp and pure laughter crossed my mind... Although I don''t know why there was such an illusion, but such a smile made Jane Mo feel happy and sweet at the moment. That kind of feeling is like that Xiao Yan really didn''t leave, right beside her, in her heart. ¡­¡­ Monterey, USA. The waves gently beat the beach. When they met the reef, the waves were turned up and fell back to the sea. Shi Shaoqin looked at the news sent by the people in Los Angeles. His beautiful face showed a shallow smile. His eyes fell on the sleeping star''s face. Shi Shaoqin said softly, "Mo''er woke up. During the appointment..." Star waved his small hand, rubbed his small nose, tooted his mouth and continued to sleep. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes softened, "find a chance and let her hug you, okay?" Star''s eyes gradually become soft and tender, and his fingers become deep and thin I don''t know if it''s because he was in the incubator in the early stage, or because Xi Cheng later interfered with drugs. Although star''s face gradually expanded, it''s not the same as Jian Jie. At first glance, it''s Gu Beichen''s child. Star itself combines some characteristics of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo and reorganizes. Coupled with some reasons the day after tomorrow, he doesn''t look like them. Well, it should be said that she is a little too beautiful... But she is not as beautiful as a girl. "I can''t recognize it at a glance," Shi Shaoqin smiled. "It saves you some trouble to meet." The moonlight was soft, and Monterey floated in from the outside because the four seasons were like spring and the wind was silky and comfortable Shi Shaoqin looked at star and looked softly at Qin Shao, the master of the Mo palace. He was completely bipolar. ¡­¡­ The rain in Los Angeles stopped and cleared up after five days. During this period, Li Xiaoyue found a space and came back to see her, but she didn''t stay long because of the problem of the case... Fortunately, when she woke up, she spent a lot of time together in the future. After some recovery and follow-up inspection after waking up, Jian Mo also went out of the hospital on the sunny day Jian Mo, carried by Gu Beichen himself, returned to the villa in the middle of the mountain. Back home, Jian Mo drank the soup prepared by Aunt Luo and asked curiously, "it seems that I haven''t seen Xiao Jing these two days?" "Well, it''s a holiday..." Gu Beichen said with a smile. Jane Mo was slightly stunned, "it''s really not easy." "Huh?" Jane Mo zhe smiled. "I always thought Xiao Jing was used to be cheated by you... So, this big holiday should be no chance." She was surprised by the implication. "I''m actually a good boss," Gu Beichen lied. "If he wants to take a vacation, I''ll let him take it." Jane Mo skimmed her lips. She knew Gu Beichen''s abdominal darkness Listening to his words, I feel a little strange. When Xiao Jing came back with a gloomy face one day, Jane Mo knew why Gu Beichen would give Xiao Jing a holiday with such confidence... When he wanted to take her on a trip. "I''ll give you a gift." Jane Mo forbeared and asked. This man has been holding back for several days... Is this, when she wakes up, the gift will be invalid? "Yes." Gu Beichen answered softly. Jane Mo didn''t speak and waited Then... No more! Jian Mo frowned, "Gu Beichen..." "Ah Chen," Gu Beichen corrected with a smile, "husband is better!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and spit in her heart. The proud man is really terrible, and the proud man with black belly is even more terrible. Gu Beichen also teases Jane mo. where can she bear to sulk? Originally, I planned to take her to see the gift he prepared for her when she recovered her strength "Go..." Gu Beichen gestured to Jian mo. "Where are you going?" Looking at Jian Mo, Gu Beichen smiled and said, "don''t you want a gift? Take you to see the gift for you..." Chapter 936 Jane Mo''s eyes burst into a smile as soon as she heard it. "Young lady, don''t eat more?" Aunt Luo asked. Jane Mo was only thinking about gifts and quickly shook her head. Gu Beichen looked at her eagerness, and the corners of his mouth also overflowed with a smile. He looked at Aunt Luo. "Yunze said that he should eat less and more recently..." he paused. "We''ll come back and eat later." "Good!" Aunt Luo answered, "I''ll prepare." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, then took Jian Mo''s hand and left the villa. Jane Mo didn''t ask Gu Beichen what gift it was. Anyway, she wouldn''t say it if she asked this sultry man When the mobile phone rang, Jian Mo opened it. It was Li Xiaoyue''s wechat voice message: "girl, I can go back after the court session tomorrow. Remember to leave time for me!" "I''m all yours, and time must be yours," said Jane with a smile Li Xiaoyue smiled and said, "tut Tut, when I wake up, my mouth becomes sweet! However, I''d better leave your sweet words to your general manager Gu. I don''t want them." Jian Mo immediately joked: "yes, yes, I know you don''t want it. You just want Mo Shaochen..." As soon as Li Xiaoyue heard this, he immediately raised his eyebrow, flipped the information and replied to the message: "go away! I''m at the peak of my career now, and men are farts!" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen, who was driving, and was a little surprised: "I said... What''s the situation?" Li Xiaoyue replied carelessly: "nothing! It used to be the worship of little girls... Now I''m mature." Jane Mo left her mouth and could hear from Li Xiaoyue''s tone that she really didn''t feel much about Mo Shaochen. "Yes, you''re mature. Now you focus on your career... Look back carefully. You''re old... Then all the good ones have been picked away, so you can cry." Li Xiaoyue stopped flipping. From beginning to end, he didn''t find Mo Shaochen standing on the first floor of the reference room, "ha ha, no, I still have my little lover!" Jian Mo glanced, "my milk bag won''t want you..." Li Xiaoyue smiled twice and said after teasing Jane Mo, "well, I''m busy preparing tomorrow''s things. You and your family Gu should love each other well... Otherwise, he won''t have a chance tomorrow night." Jane Mo received her mobile phone and looked at Gu Beichen and asked angrily, "husband... Do you have a sense of crisis?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered softly, as if he had some helplessness, "we should not only deal with the same-sex rival, but also beware of the opposite sex!" "Hahaha..." Jane Mo immediately smiled with a look of satisfaction. The window is open, because the sun is very good, and the wind is very comfortable all the way. "Husband, do I want to have my hair done?" Jane Mo asked, looking at her hair that had grown fast to her waist after a year of coma. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, "just like it." Jane Mo frowned, "husband, do you know... When a woman asks a man something, in fact, she wants to be praised?" Gu Beichen stopped at the traffic light. His eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply and said, "my wife can fascinate my eyes whether it''s straight hair or curly hair... No matter what kind of shape." After a pause, "well, beauty is in the eye of the beholder!" Jane Mo originally smiled, which was a satisfaction, but when Gu Beichen said his last sentence, he immediately stopped smiling, "what do you mean? It means that it''s not so beautiful and greasy, just because you love me, so you feel beautiful?" "That''s what you said, not me..." Gu Beichen started the car when the green light was on, "and it''s a sign of your lack of confidence!" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and felt so depressed. Gu Beichen scratched a thin smile on his thin lips. That smile was relaxed and spread across his handsome face in an instant, spreading out at the bottom of his eyes. Jane Mo decides not to talk to Gu Beichen. She doesn''t know at all. Let her Gu Beichen just glanced at Jian Mo in his eyes, and the smile on the corners of his mouth became deeper and deeper. ¡­¡­ Li Xiaoyue held his chin in one hand and a pen in the other. While looking through the materials, he recorded the reasonable matters for tomorrow''s case. After the record was recorded, it was half an hour after chatting with Jian Mo wechat. She closed the data, put it back in the file grid, then took her notebook and turned away from the reference room Mo Shaochen timely came out from the back floor and looked at the closed door of the reference room. His eyes gradually became deep. He is not a eavesdropper. As a lawyer, some principles are in his bones. Don''t come out, but don''t want to embarrass each other. The sunshine outside was very good. Mo Shaochen walked to the window. For a moment, the position of his heart seemed to be blocked by something He wanted to figure out what it was, but he couldn''t see it clearly. Just thinking, Mo Shaochen''s mobile phone vibrated and took it out. Seeing that it was Shen Chu, he picked it up, "huh?" "Where is it?" In Shen Chu''s voice, there was a capable voice, "have dinner together in the evening?" "You..." "I''m going to work at your side later," Shen Chu said with a smile. "It''s boring to eat alone at night. I think you mentioned that you will handle a lawsuit there recently." Mo Shaochen looked a little deeper and answered, "OK!" "You set a place and send me a text message," Shen Chu said. "See you that night." "Well, see you in the evening!" Mo Shaochen hung up. At the same time, Li Xiaoyue pushed the door of the reference room and came in. Li Xiaoyue didn''t expect that someone in the reference room, Mo Shaochen, was stunned for a while. However, in a few seconds, she returned to normal. "Elder martial brother, come and check the information?" Li Xiaoyue let out a little surprise. Some people''s success depends on hard work, but some people''s success is talent... It belongs to the kind of food that God rewards. Mo Shaochen is He read the information basically over and over again, as if this person was born for the profession of lawyer. "Well," Mo Shaochen received his mobile phone and answered softly, "there''s a doubt I didn''t understand. Come and have a look." "Oh..." Li Xiaoyue nodded with eyebrows, and then went to the place where he had just got the information. "Will senior brother make the final statement tomorrow?" "You do!" Mo Shaochen''s voice was very weak, but it was obviously decided. Li Xiaoyue looked back at Mo Shaochen a little surprised. The sun just hit him, showing the softness under the clean. "You have this ability, don''t you?" Mo Shaochen chuckled, "or are you not confident?" "Who says I''m not confident?" Li Xiaoyue retorted immediately. He could see that Mo Shaochen''s smile deepened and knew that he was excited. "Elder martial brother, now he likes to joke..." Mo Shaochen just smiled and didn''t speak. Li Xiaoyue looked up the information and asked, "is there anything for you tonight, senior brother?" She raised her eyes. "If it''s all right, have dinner together at night?" Chapter 937 Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue slightly and deeply. Her expression was indifferent, there was not much emotion, just a casual invitation. "A friend is coming," said Mo Shaochen. "I have an appointment in the evening." Li Xiaoyue shrugged and didn''t think so. "OK..." she put back the information, "I''m finished checking, let''s go first." Mo Shaochen nodded and didn''t speak. He just subconsciously moved with Li Xiaoyue until she disappeared from her eyes From beginning to end, Mo Shaochen had only one idea. Li Xiaoyue is really not the original Li Xiaoyue. Now she is confident, generous and without a trace of inferiority. In the legal profession, only people with high professional quality can behave so calmly For a period of time when the United States re examined the license, a criminal court that caused a sensation in the legal circle made this woman, even if he was transformed, stop her eyes. Mo Shaochen converged his sight, turned around and looked out of the window In the eyes, there is already a sense of spring. New buds emerge after the rain. In the sun, they are full of hope. But now Mo Shaochen, inexplicably, has a strange loss in his heart ¡­¡­ Jane Mo thinks Gu Beichen''s gift is far enough. Los Angeles, which has been almost half worn, has driven down from the mid mountain villa for more than an hour "Very anxious?" Gu Beichen asked deliberately. Jane Mo rolled her eyes. "I tell you, I''ve prepared a gift for you. Are you in a hurry?" Gu Beichen was silent, as if he was seriously thinking. After a while, he nodded, "also..." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth, hummed, and fanned her eyes to see the passing street view outside the window. One year, she seemed to miss a lot, but she never missed it. Although her consciousness is vague, she seems to have experienced the changes in Los Angeles in her dreams Li Yunze said that ah Chen would chat with him every day. The big and small affairs of Los Angeles, the affairs of taking care of the family, the affairs of the people around... And some beautiful love stories that people yearn for. Suddenly, Jane''s mouth was full of foam. "What are you thinking?" Gu Beichen is curious. Jane Mo raised her eyebrows, "I won''t tell you..." "..." Gu Beichen was unable to laugh or cry, "what a strong sense of revenge." Jane Mo skimmed her lips and refused to comment. When the car arrived at its destination, Jane Mo was still addicted to her "plan". "Get off..." Gu Beichen loosened his seat belt while opening his mouth. Jane Mo also habitually loosened her seat belt. When people stood in a large villa area, she said it was really a little confused. "You want to give me so many houses?" Jian Mo asked subconsciously, with a sense of vision that she would soon become a local tyrant in her eyes. Gu Beichen can''t laugh or cry. How can an emperor''s largest shareholder be like a poor man every time? "You think too much..." Gu Beichen said angrily, took Jian Mo''s hand and went inside. "Oh, I''ve never heard of the new building," said Jane. "I haven''t heard of it yet." Jane Mo kept talking all the way. At the end, she was very dissatisfied, "Hey, you won''t make such a big villa area during my coma?" "Well, this is the year..." Gu Beichen answered. Jian Mo glanced, "I didn''t listen to Shen Chu!" When she said this, she looked distressed, "and what''s the name of the group Shen Chuqi? Why didn''t you stop it at the beginning?!" "I didn''t know she was in the competition..." Gu Beichen was also very innocent. "Later, I knew the name of the combination from the news." What''s the name ''haunt''?! When Jian Mo listened to Shen Chu''s face uttering the combination name, her whole body twitched uncontrollably. She''s still haunted by bears! What kind of combination name?! If you have to combine names, isn''t it not good to directly ''Chumo''? It looks like an artistic conception Shen Chu came immediately. Look at those star combinations now. If you want people to remember them at once, you must have a bright name What ''cockroach band'', ''crazy tunnel''... And so on! Jane Mo looked confused and wanted to ask Shen Chu, are there really these combinations? Where did Shen Chu hear about it... Why hasn''t she heard of it?! Because of the name of the group, Jane Moyu''s brain ran in the train, so that when she stood in front of a villa, her brain was not enough immediately. Although it is in the villa area, it is obvious that this one is different from other villas. Jian Mo is an architect himself. Almost at a glance, he can see that this villa is full of Gu Beichen''s characteristic atmosphere. Looking sideways, Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen with doubts in her eyes, looking for the answer "The gift I gave you," Gu Beichen said softly, "from the design drawing, to the material selection, and the interior decoration design, I completed it all by myself..." his eyes looked at Jian Mo deeply, "a home, I want to give you a home!" Jane Mo''s nose was sour in an instant. She felt that she was emotional and could immediately cry. "It''s not the first time..." Jane Mo wanted to hide her affectation and said deliberately. Gu Beichen chuckled at the corners of his mouth, "well, life always needs a little regret. When you turn back and quarrel, you can take it out and tease each other." He was unwilling to lose, "for example, some people observe their first love as soon as they wake up!" "..." Jane Mo grinned secretly, "you won!" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows, looked at Jian Mo deeply, and took her into the villa From the outside to the inside, all the handwriting is full of master level techniques in the eyes of professional Jian mo. Every place is just right, not cumbersome, but it won''t make people feel that it''s not like a home, but just a work of art. Jane Mo felt that she was a little out of the subject Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and thought so! "Alas, you''re not in the design industry. It''s a big loss in the design industry..." Jane Mo was a little depressed. "No wonder Professor Smith said that you''re the most talented student he''s had in so many years." "Mo''er..." "Huh?" Jian Mo looks back at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen came forward with a sigh. "I didn''t give you this gift to let you praise my design talent..." he was a little distressed. Jane Mo, is that what people often say, occupational disease?! Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen and smiled immediately She walked forward, put her arms around his waist, slightly raised her head, looked up at the sight of Beichen, and gently said, "I just want to see if you will be angry when I consider changing jobs like this?" Gu Beichen''s sight becomes deep, waiting for Jian Mo to continue to say Jane Mo''s eyes twinkled, and she raised her eyebrows and said, "although I was thinking about all kinds of things along the way, I still noticed that it was closer to Luoda and Spencer than halfway up the mountain." "And then?" Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually overflowed with a smile, and his voice was also spoiled, waiting for Jian Mo to continue. Chapter 938 "Half mountain villa, too lonely..." Jane Mo pasted it on Gu Beichen''s chest and said slowly, "it''s inconvenient for J and milk bag to go home." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered gently. Jane Mo continued with a smile, "you want to give me a home, a real home..." her nose was a little sour. "It''s not only your own design, but also a home with children around you." The villa in the middle of the mountain is too far away. Whether it''s j or Jian Jie, it takes a lot of time to go home. They will be very tired and can only live on campus... Go home on weekends. It''s only half an hour from here, but it''s different whether it''s Spencer or Spencer. In this way, they can go home every day, and then start from home to school in the morning The most important thing is that they will have children in the future. Here, children will not play as lonely as mid level villas. After all, this is a villa area, isn''t it?! How could she not know his intentions? Deliberately study the design, just want to see the man depressed He loved her so much and loved her with all he had. The only thing she could repay was that he was not the cold emperor and President outside, but a man with flesh and blood and emotion. Jian Mo looked up and was instantly involved in his world by Gu Beichen''s deep ink pupil She smiled, tiptoed slightly and landed on Gu Beichen''s thin lips. "Ah Chen, I love you..." Jane Mo said with tears on his lips. After that, she will tell him every day that she loves him! After a year of car accident and coma, Jane Mo felt that there were accidents everywhere in life. Don''t wait for it to be irreparable before she found that she had left so many regrets "I love you too!" Gu Beichen said in a low voice and kissed Jian Mo fiercely in the house he was about to stay in. ¡­¡­ Xiao Jing lay on the couch by the pool and sighed heavily "Hey, how lonely it is to travel alone!" Xiao Jing glanced. "I haven''t had a holiday for two days now. Why do I start to feel bored?" Sometimes people are really cheap. When there is no holiday, those who grasp the heart and scratch the liver want a holiday But when there was a holiday, I found that NIMA''s... Turned out to be so boring. Every day is eating, drinking and sleeping. Life is about to be wasted. Xiao Jing gets up, changes clothes in the guest room and plans to have dinner in the hotel cafeteria. When the "Ding" sound came, the elevator door opened, and Xiao Jing subconsciously walked in At the right time, a girl with a baseball cap rushed out of the elevator. Xiao Jing was unprepared and staggered for two steps before she stood firm. Xiao Jing suddenly frowned. Just when he wanted to scold, he saw the girl bowing and bowing to apologize "Sorry, sorry..." The so-called "reach out and don''t hit the smiling face", Xiao Jing said to his mouth. Looking at the girl''s good attitude, he turned his mouth and said, "forget it... Be careful next time." "Yes, I''m sorry..." the girl apologized again and turned away. However, at the moment of turning around, the girl''s mouth overflowed with a proud smile. From beginning to end, because the girl bowed her head and bowed, and her long hair came back, Xiao Jing didn''t see what she looked like at all Xiao Jing pressed the down button of the elevator again and looked at the girl''s back while waiting for the elevator. Just as the girl turned and went to the other side of the corridor, the elevator arrived. He narrowed his eyes and entered the elevator. The girl waited until Xiao Jing got into the elevator, then smiled at her wallet, proudly took her room card and turned back into the room next to Xiao Jing. The buffet in the hotel is paid first and then eaten casually. Xiao Jing went to get his wallet to pay, but found that he didn''t have it all over "Left it in the guest room?" Xiao Jing whispered softly and turned around to go back to his room to get it, but he always felt something was wrong. Because he was with Chen Shao, he generally paid attention to these details. He never forgot to bring his wallet when he went out After opening the door, there was no trace of wallet everywhere, and Xiao Jing''s sight suddenly became dark. In my mind is the shadow of the girl who came out of the elevator and hit him Xiao Jing suddenly felt funny. He was a man who grew up in the dark world. Was he cheated by three hands or a girl?! Thinking of this, Xiao Jing''s face darkened After taking out his mobile phone, Xiao Jing checked the phone number of the person in charge of the hotel and directly called the manager, "I''m Xiao Jing. Adjust the monitoring on the 16th floor for an hour." When the manager heard that it was the president''s special help, he was so frightened that he hurried to serve in person But while Xiao Jingdiao was monitoring, the girl who bumped into him had gone through the check-out procedures and left the hotel in a swagger. "Xiao tezhu, this is the guest information of this room..." the front desk gave Xiao Jing the information of the leaving girl. Xiao Jing looked at the name on the paper, Wang Cuihua! "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth. He couldn''t combine the name with the little girl. Even, the first reaction... The name is false, and the identity information of the check-in is naturally false. ¡°Shit£¡¡± Xiao jinglow scolded and immediately took out his mobile phone, "check someone for me..." Dare you steal his wallet? court death! ¡­¡­ It''s almost seven o''clock in the evening after Shen Chu has handled the matter She hurriedly took a taxi to Mo Shaochen''s reservation restaurant. "Something was delayed. Unexpectedly, it was delayed for more than an hour." "It''s all right," Mo Shaochen said softly. "I ordered something you like to eat. See if you have anything to add." Shen Chu smiled, "just order it!" "OK..." Mo Shaochen answered, summoned the waiter and ordered. "Please wait a moment..." after the waiter placed an order, he poured water for them before leaving. "When will your case end?" Shen Chu asked casually. "The court session will be held tomorrow," Mo Shaochen said faintly all the time. "There is no accident. A court session should have a result." Shen Chu drank water. "How do you feel about cooperating with Li Xiaoyue for the first time?" In the past, Li Xiaoyue''s level was not enough. When she met Mo Shaochen''s court, even if she had "cooperation", she just started. In addition, Li Xiaoyue likes Mo Shaochen, and it''s no secret here in Shen Chu... After all, Jian Mo asked her to quit and brainwashed her for a long time for the sake of both of them. Mo Shaochen looks at Shen Chu. Not only Li Xiaoyue is changing, but Xiao Chu... Is also changing. "OK..." Mo Shaochen replied lightly, "professionally, she is worthy of recognition now." Shen Chu smiled. Xu was completely relieved of the past. She faced Mo Shaochen like a friend "What about the others?" Shen Chu asked. Mo Shaochen frowned slightly. Before answering, he saw Li Xiaoyue and her assistant walking towards the empty seat on their side under the leadership of the waite Chapter 939 Li Xiaoyue heard Chu ran, his assistant, say that the food in this family is very special. Thinking about the court session tomorrow, they are ready anyway. They simply come and have a taste. It''s just that she didn''t expect to meet Mo Shaochen here. What''s more, the person Mo Shaochen asked for was Shen Chu. "Eh?!" When Shen Chu saw Li Xiaoyue, he was a little surprised. Subconsciously, he looked at Mo Shaochen. "I didn''t make an appointment with my senior brother," said Li Xiaoyue with a smile on his face when he saw Shen Chu''s doubts. "It''s just that my assistant recommended here and came to have a try." "That together?" Shen Chu invited generously. "No," Li Xiaoyue joked, "my assistant doesn''t feel comfortable eating with my senior brother..." she said, looking at the empty seat in front of her, "let''s go there, so we won''t disturb the senior brother and Miss Shen." Shen Chu didn''t say much, just smiled and nodded. "Wait for the order to hang my table..." Mo Shaochen looked at the waiter at the right time and said. The waiter looked at Li Xiaoyue and was obviously asking. "Elder martial brother, please. I''ve earned it." Li Xiaoyue smiled and said, "thanks!" After saying hello, Li Xiaoyue took Chu ran to the empty table in front. After watching them leave, Shen Chu looked at Mo Shaochen and asked, "doesn''t she like you very much? How do you feel... You''re too public?" Mo Shaochen looked at Shen Chu. Deep in his eyes, there was a touch of emotion However, the emotion was so deep that Shen Chu didn''t see it, and Mo Shaochen himself didn''t find it. "We have a cooperative relationship now..." Mo Shaochen opened his mouth faintly and brought dishes to Shen Chu. Shen Chu frowned and didn''t ask any more... After all, her position in front of Mo Shaochen was a little strange. Even if we know each other very well, we are friends for many years now, and there is nothing else. ¡­¡­ "That Miss Shen is very good-looking and has temperament..." Chu ran asked after Li Xiaoyue ordered the dishes with a little girl''s gossip face, "sister Yue, is that an indisputable girlfriend?" "Hmm..." Li Xiaoyue pretended to be meditative. Just after Chu Ran''s interest was aroused, he said slowly, "you want to know so much. Why didn''t you ask elder martial brother just now?" "Sister Yue!" Chu ran immediately drooped her shoulders, pushed down her black framed glasses and said, "do you think I dare?!" "In fact, elder martial brother is very gentle. Why are you so afraid of him?" Li Xiaoyue was curious. Seeing Chu ran blush a little, he couldn''t help laughing, "Hey, you have a crush on him?!" "Sister Yue..." Chu ran was really angry now. Li Xiaoyue doesn''t tease Chu ran anymore. He just feels that being young is really good Think about her before, just like Chu ran, because she likes it, she is not afraid, but timid?! "Ranran, you can''t study law because of Mo Shaochen?" Li Xiaoyue asked. Chu ran was stunned and shook her head. "I''m the major my mother chose for me, because it''s easier to find a job and the salary is high... My mother said that there are more opportunities to choose a boyfriend in the future." As she spoke, she smiled with a shy gesture of her little daughter, "but later, I was interested in the lawyer industry after watching the court of Mo and Chu." "That... Chu debate won?" "Yes!" Chu ran smiled and nodded. Li Xiaoyue was surprised, "then how should I worship Chu Zixiao? After all, that was the first time that elder martial brother lost so far." "That was seen by someone outside the door." Chu Ran''s proud face said, "for the technology itself, Mo argued and didn''t lose..." Li Xiaoyue raised her eyebrows and didn''t continue the topic. The dishes come up quickly. The topic of two women together is far more than that of one man and one woman. Chu Ran is another chatterbox. As soon as he opens it, he can''t close it. "Sister Yue, why did you choose law?" "Because of your indisputable..." Li Xiaoyue didn''t hide, "at that time, many people in our class chose the law department of Luoda because of him." Chu ran was a little surprised and heard Li Xiaoyue casually say, "before the college entrance examination, the senior brother just had a particularly sensational lawsuit. Everyone thought it was inevitable to lose, but he won... I remember the reports at that time, his firm eyes and the look of immobility, how can such a young man drag so much?!" Li Xiaoyue put down his chopsticks and looked slightly out of the window. He remembered sitting on the roof of their small Western-style building with Jian Mo at that time and talking about volunteering for the college entrance examination "Girl, I must go to law school!" Li Xiaoyue said with his hands on his hips. "Oh..." Jian Mo is painting something. "I''ll still take the architectural design test." Li Xiaoyue looked back, "you don''t have to repeat it to me every time..." she sat cross legged on the ground next to Jian Mo, "Hey, you said, can you have a chance to see Mo Shaochen after entering school?" Jian Mo stopped, looked at Li Xiaoyue and said, "it depends on whether you go to school for men or to see men for school?" Li Xiaoyue was surrounded. "Is there a difference?" "Of course..." Li Xiaoyue thought for a while and frowned without understanding, "what''s the difference?" "The difference is," said Jane with a smile on the corner of her mouth, "if you go back and learn casually, you can just find a way to go to Mo Shaochen... Well, another way to be noble is that you learn well, go to be an assistant to him, or go to his law firm, and then stage an office sadistic love affair!" "..." Li Xiaoyue twitched at the corner of his mouth. "What you mean is that I''ll sleep with him anyway!" "Children can teach!" "OK, you dare to make fun of me..." Li Xiaoyue immediately threw down Jian Mo, and the two girls were on the roof, fighting together. At that time, the Jane family had not declined, and Jane Heng had not contracted bad habits Jian Mo is surrounded by Gu Beichen in his arms. They sit on the lazy sofa in front of the French window and look at the stars outside "What are you thinking?" Gu Beichen asked in a low and magnetic voice. Jane Mo leaned back. "She thought of the things before she went to college with Xiao Yue..." she looked up slightly. "I was thinking, does Xiao Yue like Shaochen now?" Gu Beichen was silent and said, "between them, not only Xiao Yue, but also whether he likes Shaochen..." "I know." Jian Mo glanced, "and Shaochen still couldn''t let go of Shen Chu''s woman..." Gu Beichen smiled helplessly. He didn''t know how to evaluate the way Jian Mo and Shen Chu got along with each other. Jian Mo hummed, "fortunately, Shen Chu has no idea about Shaochen now. I think Xiaoyue and Shaochen still have a chance." "Whether they have a chance depends on whether they have any ideas about each other..." Gu Beichen said, motioning Jian Mo to get up, "go outside." "Yes." Jane answered. Because she slept too long, although Gu Beichen would give her a muscle massage every day, after waking up, she still needed appropriate activities to restore her physical function. Because it''s spring, although the wind outside is still a little cool, it''s very comfortable. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo shouted after walking for a while. "Huh?" Gu Beichen looks at Jian mo. Jane Mo stopped, thought for a while, and decided to ask, "well... Yunze said, when can I get pregnant again?" Chapter 940 When Jane asked this question, there was a trace of forbearing tension in her obvious voice. Previously, she was affected by caesarean section. This time, she was worried that the car accident would also have a certain impact Losing Xiao Yan is an unforgettable regret for her and ah Chen. She hopes to usher in another small life to fill this regret and bring more hope. "I''m afraid not in the near future..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth gently and said without concealment. "However, I asked Yunze, and he studied with a gynecologist..." Jane Mo''s eyes looked at Gu Beichen more and more nervously, and the corners of her mouth began to shake. Looking at her like this, Gu Beichen raised his hand in pain, gently stroked the corner of her tight mouth and said, "look what you''re worried about..." he smiled. "Yunze said that as long as you recover well in the later stage of your body, although pregnancy will cause you some burden, it won''t be too serious." Jane Mo''s eyes lit up as soon as she heard it, "really?" "Hmm..." Gu Beichen''s smile deepened, and even the fundus of his eyes became softer. Jane Mo looked at him with a little doubt, "Mr. Gu, you''re not comforting me. Did you say that on purpose?" Gu Beichen slightly frowned and sighed, "fool, how can I comfort you with this matter?" There was a trace of helplessness and a bit of heartache in his voice. "What''s the fastest time?" With a smile at the corners of her mouth, Jane asked, "huh?" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s impatient appearance, couldn''t help but slightly droop his head, tore and kissed at the corner of her mouth, and said in a charming voice: "it depends on your physical recovery..." "What needs attention?" Jian Mo was made a little itchy by Gu Beichen. Her voice became soft and waxy and said, "I will cooperate well to recover." "Hmm..." Gu Beichen just answered softly, and then his thick tongue had pried away Jian Mo''s lips and unscrupulously absorbed the beauty in her mouth. Jane Mo was seduced by Gu Beichen and was a little confused. She could only dance her enthusiasm with his lips The two kissed for a long time. Gu Beichen reluctantly let go of Jian Mo and said in a hoarse voice, "I will accompany you to recover, and then meet our baby together..." Jane Mo''s heart seemed to sprinkle a handful of honey in an instant, sweetly spreading all nerves. "President Gu..." "Huh?" Jane Mo hugged Gu Beichen''s waist and said with a smile: "I find that you can talk more about love now than before..." "This is called love talk?" Gu Beichen asked with a smile. Jane Mo nodded approvingly, "isn''t... Company the most beautiful love words?" Gu Beichen smiled and kissed Jane Mo on the tip of her nose. The magnetic voice overflowed her thin lips: "Mo''er, it''s good." Jane Mo fanned her eyelashes and looked at Gu Beichen "I can accompany you," Gu beichenmo said, gazing deeply at Jian Mo at the same time, "because you are by my side..." The moonlight is soft as water. The moonlight pulled the long figure of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo walking. Their hands showed a virtual shadow like a peach heart in the shadow. In the following years, Jane Mo always thought that having such a man with no status or identity around you is the biggest dream and happiness of all women the second day. The first court session of Li Xiaoyue and Mo Shaochen attracted media attention. Due to Gu Beichen''s previous operation, Li Xiaoyue''s imprisonment and revocation of his lawyer''s license were suppressed. In addition, Li Xiaoyue fought such a beautiful battle in California. The focus of the media this time is that after she returned home, she cooperated with Mo Shaochen and took over an iron case that the outside world basically didn''t win. "Li Bian," a reporter saw Li Xiaoyue arrive and hurried forward and asked, "how sure are you about today''s trial?" Li Xiaoyue looked sideways at the reporter, with a professional smile on his mouth and said, "you have a problem with this problem!" The reporter looked at Li Xiaoyue a little confused "My client didn''t commit a crime," Li Xiaoyue said calmly. "As a defense lawyer, I rely on evidence, not assurance... Thank you." Despite the surging media, she took Chu ran up the steps with confidence and entered the court Mo Shaochen stood in front of the window and looked at the scene downstairs. The corners of his mouth smiled gently, and the bottom of his eyes was soft. "An experience can really change a person..." Zhao Zhenqin, the judge of the trial, handed Mo Shaochen a cup of tea. "Seriously, I''m surprised that you two cooperate together." Mo Shaochen took a sip of tea. "She has changed a lot." Zhao Zhenqin smiled, "avoid the important and take the light?" "No," said Mo Shaochen, taking back his sight from the outside, "we want to take this case together to see what happens to her first case in China..." "What?" Zhao Zhenqin asked tentatively, "the transnational case, do you want to fight with her?" "Yes." Mo Shaochen answered faintly, "she has an international card. In addition, the case involves sensitive issues at some levels. Cooperate with me. I want to see if she can adapt to my rhythm..." "Shaochen, this is not a good idea." Zhao Zhenqin frowned, "the people above may not agree with her to join..." Although Li Xiaoyue''s imprisonment and license revocation were suppressed, it was impossible to hide the people above. "See again..." Mo Shaochen put down his tea cup. "You can try her later." "Are you leaving the problem to me?" Zhao Zhenqin was dissatisfied. Mo Shaochen smiled, "you recommended me to the above people to take this transnational criminal case... Now I want Li Xiaoyue as an assistant, you can only find a way." "..." Zhao Zhenqin was speechless. Even if he doesn''t recommend it, can the chairman not think of Mo Shaochen?! This boy is totally trying to drag him into the water This court has attracted attention because of the cooperation between Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue, and many insiders have come to attend. There is almost no suspense. One is the great God of the legal world, and the other is the new star of the legal world The rolling play makes the other party''s lawyer team unable to parry at all. Zhao Zhenqin thinks that apart from Li Xiaoyue''s black history, in fact... It''s really a good choice for this transnational lawsuit. In particular, Li Xiaoyue did a very beautiful job in the final closing statement "When are you going back to Los Angeles?" Mo Shaochen asked Li Xiaoyue, who was not excited about winning the lawsuit. "I''ll be right back..." Mo Shaochen was a little surprised, "so anxious?" "Elder martial brother, what''s up?" Li Xiaoyue glanced at Mo Shaochen, and then continued to do what he was doing. "It''s all right," Mo Shaochen shook his head with a smile, "let''s go back together!" Li Xiaoyue suddenly stopped the action in his hand and looked at Mo Shaochen. There was obvious doubt in the fundus of his eyes Chapter 941 "You''re in a hurry to go back to see Jian Mo," Mo Shaochen said faintly. "The relationship between me and Beichen seems to have no reason not to go back, isn''t it?" Li Xiaoyue listened, smiled and nodded, "also..." "Take my car back?" Asked Mo Shaochen. "No," Li Xiaoyue packed up, "Chu ran will go back later. I''ll go back with her..." he paused, "but the girl is mine in the evening." The words fell, Li Xiaoyue''s mouth overflowed with a smile. Then, under Mo Shaochen''s helpless shaking head, he turned with a smile and asked Chu ran to leave together. "Sister Yue, why don''t you agree with Mo''s invitation just now?" Chu ran looks like a pity. "Why, do you want to take the elder martial brother''s car?" Li Xiaoyue asked with a smile, "but do you dare?" "Of course..." Chu ran clenched her teeth and said angrily, "... Dare not!" Li Xiaoyue looked at the girl''s spring heart and smiled. There was a trace of envy in the bottom of his eyes Youth is just right. You can dream and expect anything! And she Li Xiaoyue had a smile in the bottom of his eyes. If she had a chance, she would not let go Of course, in love, she doesn''t mind a little trick. However, she won''t force what doesn''t belong to her, but she won''t give up what she may have No inferiority is the most basic condition leading to happiness. No one has no past, but her past... She used it to lay the foundation for her strong life in the future! ¡­¡­ Gu Nanyi feels lucky that she is not a jealous mother. Otherwise, watching her daughter kiss herself with her little aunt, she must feel that she is not Luo Xiaomi''s mother! "Little uncle, little uncle..." Luo Xiaomi shook Gu Beichen''s arm and said, "don''t worry, I''ll take good care of my little aunt... You''re a man here, and it''s hard for me and my little aunt to whisper!" At the end, she snorted, obviously disgusted. Jian Mo and Gu Beichen looked at each other and heard him say, "then I''ll go to the company..." "Yes." Jane nodded. Xiao Jing is on vacation. There are some things in the company. Gu Beichen really needs to deal with them. Company is not a burden on others. Everyone should have his own responsibility. "Your little uncle left..." Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen go out of the door, then looked at Luo Xiaomi and said, "come on, what''s the matter?" "I like my little aunt best," Luo Xiaomi said with a flattering face around Jian Mo''s arm. "Little aunt, can you talk to my little uncle and let my little uncle talk to my mother..." "..." Jane Mo frowned and looked alert. She felt that what Luo Xiaomi wanted to say was definitely not a simple thing. Sure enough Luo Xiaomi endured and looked at Jian Mo with a firm light in his eyes. "I want to be a war reporter!" "..." Jane Mo''s eyebrows tightened in an instant. At the sight of Luo Xiaomi, he slightly drooped his shoulders. "Little aunt, if you don''t help me... I can''t find someone to help me." To be a war reporter was originally what the newspaper most wanted everyone to take the initiative. However, because of her identity, the president didn''t approve it at all, and it would be released only with the consent of her mother However, she hates the days when she pursues gossip and entertainment every day. She wants to go to the battlefield and feel the life of those peacekeepers. "Xiaomi, this is not a joke..." "I know," Luo Xiaomi said at the corner of his mouth. "I''m serious." As she spoke, her eyes turned red and her voice choked: "it will be very dangerous... However, when I saw the sacrifice of peacekeeping soldiers on my microblog, I felt that my life should not be spent under entertainment gossip..." Jian Mo looked at Luo Xiaomi and didn''t speak After life and death, she only felt that human life is sometimes really fragile. "Little aunt..." Luo Xiaomi gently pulled Jian Mo''s clothes with his little hand. "Xiaomi," said Jian Mo calmly, "I won''t let ah Chen find the third sister. I can only tell him what you think. The rest... Depends on what the third sister and your little uncle think." Luo Xiaomi moved his lips and wanted to say something, but finally endured it ¡­¡­ After Gu Beichen left the villa, he didn''t go to the company. Instead, he drove to Los Angeles prison. For a year, Gu Beichen''s will is not the only thing that torments him. Gu muhuai is not comfortable in this year Sometimes living is worse than dying. Luo Songxian, an old man, was vented in prison by a pile of criminals who couldn''t vent. Although Gu muhuai was not physically tortured, to some extent... His mental devastation was more painful than Luo Songxian. Gu Beichen sits in an independent prison visiting room. Every time he comes over, he feels that he will become cold-blooded in an instant. The sound of "clang" came. Gu Beichen raised his eyes slightly and heard Gu murhuai howling and resisting Once, the man who fought with Gu Beichen is the one who is most afraid to see now! Sometimes, prison guards feel that they should never be hostile to Gu Beichen who they are enemies with in this life That''s definitely a terrible thing. He is not the cold-blooded president of the mall seen by outsiders, nor the affectionate man in front of Jian mo... But the embodiment of the devil! "Let me go, let me go..." Gu muhuai wanted to escape, but the prison guard pressed him onto a special chair and locked him. The prison guards left after turning off the camera. In a small space, the atmosphere was so calm that people couldn''t breathe. "Gu Beichen, what do you want to say?" Gu mohuai stared and subconsciously wanted to stimulate Gu Beichen, "no matter how much you say, Jian Mo can only wait to die... Ha ha!" "I came here today just to tell you..." Gu Beichen chuckled, "let you down... Mo''er, you''re awake!" "Impossible!" Gu mohuai howled and wanted to get up, but he was suppressed by the chair, "Jian Mo can''t wake up at all..." "Do you think it''s necessary for me to lie to you after a year?" Gu mohuai''s eyes widened. Gu Beichen really didn''t need to "Gu Mo''er could not bear the pain," he said silently, because he could not bear the cold pain in the corner of his mouth. "But Gu Mo''er kept on laughing." Gu Beichen''s words fell. Looking at Gu mohuai''s madness again, he got up silently, looked at him coldly, turned and walked to the prison visiting room He came today just to tell Gu mohuai that Mo''er woke up. He is not a kind man. His kindness has been left behind by Shi Shaoqin Gu mohuai''s mental torture. Since Cheng Qing has a "problem" in his brain, he will send him to a mental hospital to die with severe mental patients... It''s too cheap for them. Mo''er woke up and his torture stopped. However, Gu mohuai and Cheng Qing, but he will not let go of the kindness The sunshine outside is only good. Gu Beichen drives his car to imperial group. The eagle''s eyes looked at the front slightly, and Gu Beichen''s thin lips were slightly in a straight line Mo''er, all the darkness I come, I just want to give you a light... There is no fear, only the life you want. Chapter 942 "Chen Shao..." Susan saw Gu Beichen arrive at the company and enter the office with a pile of documents. "These are urgent to deal with. This is today''s itinerary." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered indifferently. "Besides," Susan continued, "in the evening, the city leaders will ask you to have dinner." "OK..." Gu Beichen''s voice was faint all the time. Susan was slightly stunned and didn''t respond. This began with the little lady''s coma. Xiao Jing went to such meals. Although Xiao Jing''s holiday is enlarged now, the young husband didn''t wake up for a few days. Shouldn''t Chen Shao be tired of being around her all the time?! Gu Beichen saw that Susan had no movement, slightly raised the eagle''s eyes, looked at her, lowered his eyes, took the document instructions and said, "Xiao Yue is back today." As soon as Susan heard this, she immediately laughed and joked, "Chen Shao, is this being valued by the young lady as a friend rather than a color?" Gu Beichen stopped and seemed to be thinking seriously. After a few seconds, he nodded, "it seems..." Susan''s smile increased. Seeing the smile on Gu Beichen''s face, she always felt that the previous haze had finally passed... The happy future of Chen Shao and his wife was about to begin. "It''s all right, I''ll go out first..." Susan said and turned away. "Susan..." "Huh?" Susan stopped and looked over. Gu Beichen looked up. "Xiao Jing is on vacation. Do you want to find a chance to take a vacation?" Seeing Susan puzzled, he paused and said, "you should think about yourself." Susan was stunned and said, "Chen Shao, you''re right. You can''t see others being single?" Gu Beichen put down his pen, looked at Susan with deep eyes and said, "Susan, it''s easy to be alone alone!" When you are used to eating alone, going home alone, watching movies alone and sleeping alone... Sometimes, it''s a terrible thing. You will find that another person can''t participate in your world, and you can''t integrate into another person''s circle. Susan''s smile was a little stiff. Even Gu Beichen''s words went straight to her heart. "Chen Shao," Susan smiled, "some things can''t be forced." "How do you know if you haven''t tried?" Gu Beichen asked. Susan shook her head. At the moment, she and Gu Beichen were not superiors or subordinates, but friends who had fought side by side for many years. "It doesn''t fit, does it?" Susan sighed, "in fact, why blindly fly moths to the fire for things that are not suitable at all?" When she finished, she suddenly smiled with relief, "otherwise, we would have been together..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, without saying anything, "go out and be busy!" "OK..." Susan answered, turned around, followed her usual steps and left Gu Beichen''s office. However, at the moment of closing the door, Susan''s mouth overflowed with a touch of self mockery. Chen Shao saw that she had moved her mind to Xiao Jing. Didn''t Xiao Jing really see it? In fact... They just know very well that they can''t and can''t. In Chen Shao''s body, if they are influenced by each other''s feelings, they will lose a lot of normal judgment, which is business In private affairs, her character is not suitable for Xiao Jing, and Xiao Jing''s background is not suitable for her. They are destined to be only partners, only confidants and friends Susan went back to the office, looked at the computer screen and smiled... Maybe it''s not enough love! Moved, just moved If you love Chen Shao and his wife so much, what can''t be crossed? All the excuses are just because they are not deep enough, aren''t they? ¡­¡­ Mo palace. As soon as Shi Juxi got off the plane, he saw the child sitting on the beach playing with the sand with a puzzled face. "This child..." Shi juechi asked Kani as she walked towards star and looked at him. Carney was also stunned. "Jue Shao, I went out with you. How do I know?!" "..." Shi Jue Xi frowned. "However, such a small child appeared in the Mo palace..." Carney twitched at the corner of his mouth, "curious!" There are children here, but they are at least five or six-year-old orphans, or they are bought from dark street and trained from childhood When did Qin Shao become interested in such a small child? The most important thing is... Can you play sand here comfortably?! "Jue Shao..." Xiao Siyue stepped forward, looked from his sight and said with a smile, "that''s star. Qin Shao brought it back." Shi Jue Chi didn''t look away from star, "I know." There are such big children here. Who can bring them back except Shaoqin?! "I heard Xi Cheng say," Xiao Siyue shrugged. "Qin Shao wants him to take over... So he said to start training from an early age." Carney opened his mouth in amazement, "isn''t it?!" What did Xiao Siyue and Carney say? Shi juechi didn''t care. He just walked to star Just as he was approaching, several men who had been lined up not far away stopped Shi juechi. "Qin Shao explained," said the man in the middle, "when the young master plays, no one is allowed to approach within ten meters." Shi Jue Chi smiled, but still smiled helplessly, "why?" "Star is more attentive when playing. If someone interrupts him, he will make trouble..." The voice came softly from the side and rear. Shi Jue Chi looked back and saw Shi Shaoqin coming... His eyes were full of questions and questions. Carney has been a little incompetent. Why hasn''t he seen Qin for a while? The painting style has changed?! "Stone..." star Nuo shouted. Holding a handful of sand tightly in his small hand, he got up and stumbled on the beach. The one with a deep foot and the one with a shallow foot went to Shi Shaoqin, "here!" Carney''s face is petrified Stone? This is... The kid''s "nickname" for Qin Shao? Shi juechi didn''t speak. He just kept looking at star. His warm face was full of unspeakable emotions... Complex and rapidly changing. Shi Shaoqin squatted down and opened his hand in time. His hand is as slender as jade and looks like a work of art. All the people in Mo palace know that Shi Shaoqin has a habit of cleanliness. However, at this moment, he let star put a handful of sand in his little hand into the palm of his hand, and then he heard the child''s silver bell like laughter. "Seed..." star''s little hand poked Shi Shaoqin''s hand. Everyone didn''t understand what he said. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes suddenly became deep and looked at a sunflower seed in the sand. Shi juechi walked over and his eyes crossed the sunflower seeds mixed in the sand in Shi Shaoqin''s palm This should have fallen from the sunflower in full bloom last year. There should be many buried in the sand nearby. "Shaoqin..." Shi juechi looked back, looked deeply at Shi Shaoqin, and asked in a voice that only each other could hear, "whose child is star?" He asked in a low voice, "is it foamy?" Chapter 943 The surrounding atmosphere was a little stiff, and even the air seemed to condense because of Shi juechi''s questioning. Star didn''t feel it at all. He just kept poking Shi Shaoqin''s hand with his small hand and said, "plant... Grow... The stone is good..." Shi Shaoqin''s original rising breath gradually dissipated in star''s soft voice, but smiled gently at star and said, "OK!" "Giggle..." star immediately grinned, and his bright eyes were filled with starlight because of this smile. Shi juechi''s eyebrows wrinkled more tightly, "Shaoqin?" Shi Shaoqin slightly tilted his hand. Someone had come and took the sand in his hand together with the sunflower seeds. He wiped his hand and didn''t dislike the sand on star and picked him up. "If you already have an idea in your heart," Shi Shaoqin looked at Shi juechi. "No matter how much I say, I can explain anything, but in your eyes, it''s just unreasonable, isn''t it?" "..." Shi Jue Chi''s lips moved and tried to refute, but he couldn''t refute. Shi Shaoqin looked back and said, "you can think what you want..." he didn''t speak any more, but just walked to the castle with star in his arms. Star is very clever in Shi Shaoqin''s arms. He lies on his shoulder and smiles at Shi Jue Chi. Shi juechi looked at star like this. Involuntarily, he gradually raised the corners of his mouth towards him When Xu Shi waited for his response, star happily jumped in Shi Shaoqin''s arms and smiled. "Jue Shao," Carney came forward. "What do you suspect?" "I was thinking, if Momo''s child didn''t die..." Shi juechi paused and didn''t continue. Carney shrugged. "The child looks very good, but he doesn''t look like Gu Beichen and Jian Mo?!" Shi juechi frowned and mocked himself. "Carney, actually... I can''t let go. I hope the child is still there, you know?" But they all know In that case, how tiny is it for such a lifeless baby to survive?! After star washed it, he went to the restaurant to wash it himself "Go, go..." star was dissatisfied, and Shi Shaoqin kept holding him. Shi Shaoqin sighed helplessly and could only put down star. He walked forward happily and stumbled. "Find some melon seeds..." Shi Shaoqin told the people on the side, "send them to the restaurant." "Yes!" Shi Shaoqin raised his steps. He walked slowly and allowed star to fall to the ground because his steps were sometimes fast. Instead of helping him, he just watched the little guy hum twice, got up and went on He has brought star back to the Mo palace for a week. Xu is Gu Beichen and Jian Mo have strong genes. He has an excellent memory. As long as he walks the way, he will know how to go. Waiting for Shi Shaoqin and the stumbling star to walk to the restaurant, a few minutes had passed, but half an hour had passed. "Qin Shao..." someone handed a plate of melon seeds to him. Shi Shaoqin glanced faintly and then put it on the star baby stool, "grab!" Star didn''t know if he understood a word. When Shi Shaoqin said something, his small hand suddenly patted it into the melon seed plate. He grabbed one of his left and right hands respectively, and handed it to Shi Shaoqin with a crisp smile. In due time, Shi juechi just arrived at the door of the restaurant When Shi Shaoqin opened his hand, star smiled and let go of his little hand. Shi Shaoqin glanced at the in his hand and handed it to the person on the side, "plant it at the door according to this quantity." The man was stunned at the bottom of his eyes, but in a flash, he disappeared and bowed over, "yes..." The servant began to serve the meal. Shi Jue Chi didn''t move, but just looked at the two people, one big and one small. No matter who the child is, he suddenly feels... Shaoqin has changed. Become soft and easy to get along with Shi Jue Chi''s mouth corner overflowed with a faint smile. People are selfish, and so is he. After so many years, if this child can bring the sunshine to Shaoqin, why should he tangle with others? Even... It may force Shaoqin to return to darkness?! ¡­¡­ "Girl," Li Xiaoyue called Jian Mo as soon as he arrived in Los Angeles. "Are you sure the time is mine at night?" "Must......" Jane Mo answered with a smile and went to get her bag. "Where do you meet?" "It''s time for dinner. Go to dinner first." Li Xiaoyue said and thought, "just go to the Nanxiang building in front of the school?" "OK..." Jane Mo answered, "I''ll be there in about an hour." "I''ll spend half an hour at most..." said Li Xiaoyue, with a look of disgust. "Ladies live in mountains and travel slower than others." Jane Mo changed her shoes. "It''s all right. I''ll be nearby in a few days?" "Why, your general manager Gu wants to drive you away again?" Li Xiaoyue joked. "Get out!" Jian Mo smiled and scolded, "in a few days, we''ll move to the new villa area under the Emperor... It''s more convenient to live there in the future." "Emperor villa area?" Li Xiaoyue is light. Chu ran, who was driving on the side, immediately said with bright eyes: "sister Yue, the ''Changhuan Garden'' on the other side of the east side... It was just built by the emperor last year, which can be regarded as the villa area in the urban area..." She said, with a light on her face. I don''t know, she thought she had a set there. However, it''s not surprising The difficulty of building villas in the city and the final transaction price are astronomical... Everyone is excited. "Shit, money is capricious!" Li Xiaoyue bared his teeth and said, "girl, your man has been killed for you." "Yes, I''ll give you a set..." Jane joked. Li Xiaoyue smiled and said, "how do you feel that I''m tied to a local tyrant?" She finished laughing, "but I''d better find my future husband to send me." "Well, Mo Shaochen has this ability..." "No!" Li Xiaoyue immediately said, "our topic today has nothing to do with him, okay?" Jian Mo shrugged and did not continue to say Mo Shaochen. After waking up, Li Xiaoyue took time to come back and see her. They couldn''t talk so far As for Mo Shaochen, Jian Mo is naturally not sure what kind of existence Li Xiaoyue is. After the two women said a few more words to each other, they hung up the phone and went to Nanxiang building on the side of Luoda from two directions "Ah... Be careful!" Li Xiaoyue suddenly shouted, and then heard the sound of sudden braking, followed by a bang when Chu Ran''s face turned white. "Sister Yue..." Chu Ran''s voice trembled and looked at the car he was driving and hit the police car in front. The first reaction was to ask, "I... I won''t have no chance to be a lawyer in the future because I haven''t got the official card yet?" "He came out suddenly..." Li Xiaoyue said, taking off his seat belt and getting out of the car. At the right time, ye Chenyu also opened the door and got off. He saw Li Xiaoyue coming angrily "According to article of the road traffic safety law..." Li Xiaoyue, who was completely professional, said, "you are a police officer. If you know the law and break the law, you have seriously violated the above regulations. I will accuse you!" Chapter 944 Ye Chenyu suddenly felt funny. He was a policeman and popularized the law by a perpetrator?! Li Xiaoyue saw that ye Chenyu didn''t speak, but looked at her with evil charm on his face. Even the bottom of his eyes were joking, and immediately frowned, "what are you laughing at?" "This is the way into the city, and no one passed by when the accident happened," said Ye Chenyu, his voice full of charm, his arm gently on the roof and his posture full of laziness. "You said I violated the road traffic safety law..." He paused deliberately before slowly opening his mouth: "who saw it?" "I''m a witness. I saw it with my own eyes!" Li Xiaoyue sneered, "of course, if you have to say that I am with the driver, my testimony is not enough to adopt..." Ye Chenyu was not in a hurry to speak, just waiting for Li Xiaoyue to continue. "It''s just that if you want to evade your responsibilities in this way, I''m afraid you can''t afford the final result." "Sharp teeth and sharp mouth..." Ye Chenyu smiled, and his voice was still full of fun. Who hasn''t seen him for so many years? In front of this woman, whether she is clear about the regulations or open her mouth, it is obvious that... She is probably a lawyer. "That..." Ye Chenyu slowly raised his eyes, looked at Li Xiaoyue and asked, "... You said so much, how do you want to deal with it?" "It depends on whether you are public or private..." Li Xiaoyue raised his chin slightly, with confidence in his eyes. In such a situation, civil servants, especially under their own responsibility, will choose public service only when their brains are burned. Ye Chenyu stared at Li Xiaoyue deeply, and the smile on the corners of his mouth deepened a little significant! "If I choose private..." Ye Chenyu moved slightly, and his other hand had reached the other side of Li Xiaoyue. He pressed the car with both hands and just imprisoned her in her arms. "What''s the matter?" Timely, a low confused voice, with a slight hot breath, rushed towards Li Xiaoyue''s cheek Chu ran opened the door and got out of the car. "Hey, what do you want to do?" Then she took out her mobile phone and planned to record the video "You''re a police officer," Li Xiaoyue asked coldly. "In public, are you going to threaten?" "Do you think..." Ye Chenyu''s voice became more and more low, "driving a police car is a police officer?" Chu ran didn''t have any social experience. When she heard this, she subconsciously widened her eyes, "who are you?" Li Xiaoyue looked at Chu ran and motioned her to stop talking and then looked back. "It seems that I have to add one... While trying to evade responsibility by taking advantage of my position, I hurt the party!" "This is called injury?" Ye Chenyu said softly. In the scream of Chu ran, he suddenly leaned forward Li Xiaoyue didn''t expect him to do this, so he hurriedly deviated his head subconsciously. Ye Chenyu''s eyes were filled with a smile. He stopped just one or two centimeters away from Li Xiaoyue''s face. "Why, I thought I was going to kiss you?" The light mocking words spread out on Li Xiaoyue''s cheek with heat. She turned her head and looked sharp However, she didn''t move. Fortunately, she moved, and her cheek crossed Ye Chenyu''s lip flap "You..." Li Xiaoyue just wanted to get angry, so he smiled at the bottom of Ye Chenyu''s eyes and knew that he had been fooled. At the moment, even Chu ran, who was filming, was dumbfounded Li Xiaoyue closed his eyes. Just as he was preparing to explode, ye Chenyu stood up straight and loosened his hands at the same time. "The most taboo of a lawyer should be to be unable to control his emotions..." Ye Chenyu smiled and walked up to see the two cars in close contact. "It''s not serious... The little girl doesn''t drive fast and abides by the traffic rules." With that, he looked at Chu ran, who was still recording the video, walked over, was stunned and took the mobile phone in her hand. "Also, you can record without pressing the start button?" Ye Chenyu''s smile deepened and pushed the mobile phone back into Chu Ran''s hand. From beginning to end, Chu ran was jumping in his mind. He could only accept it and had no time to respond. When ye Chenyu turned around, she looked at her mobile phone Sure enough, just in a hurry to shoot, just opened the interface, but didn''t press to start shooting! Chu ran scolded herself secretly before she bared her teeth and stared at Ye Chenyu. "Mobile phone!" Ye Chenyu looked at Li Xiaoyue and spread his hand. "What are you doing?" Li Xiaoyue gritted his teeth. Ye Chenyu still smiled with evil charm, "don''t compensate?" Li Xiaoyue reacted and went to the car to get his mobile phone to Ye Chenyu Ye Chenyu quickly dialed the number. When he heard his mobile phone ring, he broke it. After saving his name for Li Xiaoyue, he said, "call me back for the repair fee and I''ll transfer it to you..." Li Xiaoyue took the phone and looked at the name. "By the way, what''s your name?" Ye Chenyu asked. Chu ran didn''t wait for Li Xiaoyue to speak, so she quickly took out her business card and handed it to Ye Chenyu. The little girl''s chin is provoked. She looks completely... If you dare to evade responsibility, you can''t be a policeman if you sue. "Sure enough, it''s a lawyer..." Ye Chenyu smiled at his business card. Then, after deeply looking at Chu ran, he leaned towards Li Xiaoyue and said charmingly in her ear, "you''re very interesting... I hope we''ll see you soon." Without waiting for Li Xiaoyue''s reaction, ye Chenyu got into the police car and drove away "Where is the police?" Chu ran threw his mouth at the police car heading for the dust, "like a hooligan!" Li Xiaoyue subconsciously glanced at the police car that had gone away. "Wait, I''ll take a taxi and you drive to the garage..." she gritted her teeth, "pick the best garage, the best master and the best materials!" Chu ran looks at Li Xiaoyue, "sister Yue, this car is only 100000 yuan. No matter how good it is, it won''t cost much..." "I knew the broken modern girl..." Li Xiaoyue looked back and whispered, "fix it and let him get his salary for several years!" Because of this episode, when Li Xiaoyue arrived at Nanxiang building, Jian Mo had just arrived "Did you walk with?" Jane Mo joked, "slower than me." "Don''t mention it," Li Xiaoyue said angrily, "I met a psychopath." "What happened?" Jane frowned. Li Xiaoyue said about the crash before gnashing his teeth, "the more you think, the more you feel..." "Hey, is that man handsome?" Jane Mo put her arms on the table and leaned forward. "Is it a muscle man?" There was starlight in her eyes, "listen to what you mean, that man should be evil..." Li Xiaoyue immediately looked alert, "there seems to be a problem with the focus of your words?" "Let''s see if there are signs of development..." Jane Mo blinked. "Anyway, I don''t think you have too many ideas about Mo Shaochen when you come back. Why don''t you change your goal? By the way, what''s his name?" "I don''t have anyone to get there. I need to pull a man on the road?" Li Xiaoyue couldn''t stand turning his eyes, "what''s his name, ye Chenyu..." "Ye Chenyu?" Jane Mo frowned. "Why does this name seem to have been heard somewhere?" Chapter 945 "Come on..." Li Xiaoyue called the waiter to order, "don''t make a pair of acquaintances." Jane Mo smiled, "don''t expose me so quickly... Will you chat?" As soon as Li Xiaoyue heard it, the two women looked at each other and smiled. "Girl, it''s nice..." after Li Xiaoyue ordered, he supported the table with his arms and his cheeks in his hands. "Your storm has passed, and I''ve stood up again. I always feel beautiful waving to us." "I think so too..." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "You stand up again, I can continue to love each other with my president Gu. At this moment, I think it''s like a dream." "Beautiful dream!" "Yes..." Jane Mo smiled sweetly. "But if you have a destination, it''s more perfect." "Well, I see. You''re just going to sell me today, aren''t you?!" Li Xiaoyue deliberately frowned. Jian Mo shrugged. "Women are born with gossip. I''m curious... How do you say that Mo Shaochen''s mind is deep enough? When she was reborn, her feelings were evaporated?!" Li Xiaoyue didn''t reply immediately. After pondering for a while, he said, "girl, what kind of feelings do you think are not easy to give up?" "First love and secret love..." Jane Mo answered without thinking, "especially the two together!" "Then you mean you can''t give up Chu Zixiao?" "Don''t change the subject for me..." Jian Mo is not fooled at all. "I still have a crush on my general manager gu!" Li Xiaoyue glanced, "I haven''t seen you sleep silly after sleeping for a year..." "No way, my Gu always chats with me every day, and my brain hasn''t rested!" Li Xiaoyue couldn''t bear to turn his eyes, "the left one is your general manager, and the other is your general manager... Dog abuse is not like this!" "I just want to stimulate you," said Jian Mo with a smile. "In fact, how good it is for you to marry Mo Shaochen. When you turn back, your best friend will upgrade your family!" "It''s only when others are interested in me..." Li Xiaoyue sighed. "He''s my first love and secret love. Isn''t... Shen Chu so interested in him?" "But Shen Chu is not interested in him!" Jane skimmed her mouth. Li Xiaoyue smiled, "so, he and I are the same kind of people, but I don''t want to keep warm..." She has her pride and comforting love, not love. ¡­¡­ Ye Chenyu drove the car to the repair shop designated by the police station. Within half an hour, he received a call from Wang Qiang. "Uncle Qiang..." "Ye Chenyu -" On both sides, a joking voice and a roaring voice came almost at the same time. Ye Chenyu took his mobile phone aside and began to learn Wang Qiang''s tone. "How long have you been back to the station? The police car assigned to you has entered the repair shop more than five times. You''re a policeman. Now you''re not a private detective or hooligan..." Ye Chenyu''s words almost synchronized with Wang Qiangshen. They had to sigh that they had a tacit understanding for so many years. When Wang Qiang finished venting, ye Chenyu put his mobile phone back to his ear "Did you listen again?" "Yes..." Ye Chenyu opened his eyes and lied. Wang Qiang hummed and said in a deep voice, "there is a task above..." "Huh?" Ye Chenyu whispered softly. "There is a transnational criminal case to be heard in the international court," Wang Qiang said. "The Bureau has arranged a special team to protect accompanying lawyers. You have more experience than others. I intend to recommend you as the leader of the action team." Ye Chenyu frowned, some dissatisfied, "can''t you let me stop for a few days?" "I haven''t reported it yet. I''ll see what you mean now..." there was a trace of guilt in Wang Qiang''s voice. "You''ve been undercover for so many years, and you''ve really worked hard." "Who are the lawyers?" Ye Chenyu secretly spit and scold. Wang Qiang is a man who always plays the emotional card. "It''s said that Mo Shaochen is the main debater. It''s not clear who the others have decided." When ye Chenyu heard "Mo Shaochen", he obviously frowned, "is it dangerous?" "I''m not sure, but the chairman attaches great importance to this case..." Wang Qiang said. "It''s normal for such a case to be in danger if it involves too much." "I want to," said Ye Chenyu. "I''ll reply to you tomorrow." "OK..." Wang Qiang answered and said two more words before hanging up. Ye Chenyu took a taxi back to his mother''s villa. "Why is it so late?" Mother ye said and went to the kitchen, "I''ve left you some food to heat up for you..." "Don''t be hot," followed Ye Chenyu to the kitchen. "I''ll eat like this." "Just a minute." Ye Chenyu stood at the kitchen door and looked at the busy figure of mother Ye. His eyes were a little blurred, "Mom..." "Huh?" Mother Ye looked back at her son with a smile in her eyes. I didn''t understand my son''s identity before. Now I know that I was undercover before. Now I''m back in the Bureau. Mother Ye is always happy in her heart. It''s not what his son does, but he can come back every day now. "There is a task in the Bureau..." Ye Chenyu opened his mouth and didn''t go on. Mother Ye was already nervous. "I won''t let you go undercover again?" Ye Chenyu smiled, "my identity has been exposed, I won''t!" "Then..." "To protect people!" Ye Chenyu was silent and then continued, "it''s Mo Shaochen." Mother Ye''s actions stopped, then put the hot dishes on the plate and handed them to Ye Chenyu, motioning him to go out first. "What do you think?" Mother ye asked after ye Chenyu returned. "I don''t know..." Ye Chenyu laughed at himself. No matter what the love between father and mother was, he said plainly that he was an illegitimate child. "Chen Yu," mother Ye warmed another dish, "he''s not just your brother, you''re also a policeman!" Then mother Ye looked back at Ye Chenyu, "you have your responsibility for both public and private." "I understand this truth..." Ye Chenyu sighed softly. "Mom, I just don''t want to embarrass you after so many years." Mother Ye smiled and shook her head. "I''m not embarrassed..." she turned off the fire. "Your father has gone for so many years, and I have nothing to be embarrassed about." She filled the meal. "Mom can''t be with you all the time. You are brothers anyway." Ye Chenyu didn''t answer, but went to the restaurant with his mother. He has never been a hesitant person or a person with low self-esteem. However, after hiding for so many years, he just didn''t want Mo Shaochen''s father to be different from the original one... That''s all. He loves his father, so he also loves his brother who is also his father''s son Ye Chenyu ate silently, but his mind didn''t stop at all. When he finished eating, he looked at the opposite mother ye and asked, "Mom, if Shaochen knows me, do you think... Will he admit my brother?" Chapter 946 "What do you want him to do?" Mother Ye smiled and filled a bowl of soup for her son, "or, Chenyu, do you want to know Shaochen?" Ye Chenyu took the soup. "Don''t want to..." he smiled. "Mom, we just know him. He doesn''t need to know us." Mother Ye stared angrily at Ye Chenyu, "isn''t your doubt a joke?" "It''s just a joke..." Ye Chenyu drank the soup. "I''ll see if you want to, Hei hei." "Asshole!" Mother Ye scolded. Ye Chenyu grinned and mother Ye cleaned up all the rest of the dishes while chatting at home. "I''ll find Beichen later." "So late?" Mother Ye looked at the time. It was almost nine o''clock. "Jian Mo just woke up a few days ago. Don''t haunt Beichen all day." "I have something to do," Ye Chenyu wiped his mouth casually with a napkin. "I called him at that time and said it was Jian Mo''s best friend who would accompany him back in the evening. He stayed in an empty room alone in the evening. I was kind enough to accompany him." As soon as mother Ye listened, she squinted, "I haven''t been serious all day." "Mom, don''t wait for the door at night." Ye Chenyu stood up and walked out, "if I''m late, I''ll go back to my apartment." "Yes." Mother ye sent Ye Chenyu to the door, explained a few words, watched her son go out of the yard door, and then closed the door to clean up the table. Mother Ye''s action of washing tableware stopped slightly. She looked out of the window at the swaying weeping willow for a long time before she took back her sight and continued to wash with a slight sigh. "Chenyu actually wants to meet Shaochen..." mother ye said, as if there was someone around her. "But he was worried that Shaochen would reject him. After all, he didn''t know he existed for so many years. It''s hard to accept that his father once had another woman." With that, mother Ye''s nose is a little sour. When she fell in love with Mo Huai, she didn''t know he had a wife However, love, know, and finally can''t give up. No matter whether the relationship between the two people was appropriate or not, Chen Yu and Shaochen were innocent... She has nothing to think about now. She just hopes that the two children will be safe and have their own family in the future. However, at this moment, mother Ye didn''t think that the brothers, in the end, someone was sad As summer approaches, the night weather in Los Angeles is particularly pleasant. Gu Beichen and the city leaders had finished their meal. It was already ten o''clock. He asked the bottom executives to take a group of people to paradise night to continue playing. He drove his car and went to the Blues On the way, he called Jane mo. "The party is over?" Jane Mo''s soft voice came, "have you been drinking?" "No..." Gu Beichen said in a low voice, "use your shield." "Are you going home now?" "Go to Blues... I have a friend I haven''t seen for a long time. I have an appointment." Jian Mo glanced, "Yo, Mr Gu, your trip this evening... Is also very busy?!" "Well, I usually have to accompany you." Gu Beichen smiled and said, "everyone heard that I was left alone today. I know I didn''t miss the chance. I''m crowded until tonight..." As soon as Jane Mo heard it, she was sweet in her heart and smiled on her face. She also deliberately said, "what do you mean... I''m taking up too much of your time Jian Mo''s words just fell, and a dull ''Bang'' came. "Dead woman, you show your love with your general manager in front of me. You sleep on the sofa tonight." Gu Beichen listened to the angry voice coming from the opposite side, and his thin lips smiled. "If she lets you sleep on the sofa, call me and I''ll pick you up." Jane Mo looked at Li Xiaoyue and smiled, "well, I see..." paused. She then said, "go back early and drive carefully on the road." "Hmm..." Gu Beichen answered and waited for Jian Mo to hang up the phone before taking off the Bluetooth headset. When Gu Beichen arrived at the blues, ye Chenyu fell asleep on the sofa. I recently worked with a case, which was closed today. I haven''t slept well. Gu Beichen didn''t call ye Chenyu, but just sat opposite, took the computer and processed some foreign documents "Hmm? When did you come..." Ye Chenyu''s voice was a little dull. "Why didn''t you call me?" "You''ve been back to the police station for several months. How can you make it the same as when you were undercover?" Gu Beichen said, processed a file and turned off the computer. Ye Chenyu drew an arc from the armrest of the sofa with his long legs. He sat up and took the water from one side. After drinking it at one breath, he said: "I''ve been busy for so many years, I can''t get down..." "Have you finished what I asked you to do for me?" Gu Beichen took out his cigarette and lit it. He took a cold breath. "No," Ye Chenyu shook his head. "You can''t make it by yourself. Let me finish it in half a year. Are you thinking too much?" "..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and said with some disgust, "what are you looking for me in the evening?" Ye Chenyu was stunned. "You didn''t say that Jian Mo left you alone. I was kind enough to accompany you..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Gu Beichen slowly lay back on the sofa, and the eagle looked at Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu scolded secretly. He just felt that Gu Beichen was completely overwhelming, "OK, it''s my boredom, OK?" Gu Beichen calmly converged his sight and flicked the ash with his fingers. "Your mood looks unstable." "Who can always be emotionally stable, can you?" Ye Chenyu sneered, got up, took the wine and planned to open it. "Don''t drive at night?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "don''t forget your current identity." "Didn''t drive..." Ye Chenyu glanced at Gu Beichen. "Why don''t you have a drink with me and ask your people to take us back later?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Ye Chenyu deeply. After several seconds, he didn''t say anything and nodded. Sometimes men don''t need words or talk. They just need to be accompanied Ye Chenyu wanted to drink, and Gu Beichen accompanied him. If it wasn''t Mo Shaochen, they said there was no direct relationship However, after all these years, ye Chenyu is the one Gu Beichen secretly helps. Whether it''s kindness or friendship, wine is the best language between men at this moment. In fact, ye Chenyu has recovered his identity now, and there is no big case. Gu Beichen knows that there is only one mo Shaochen who can trouble him The ''buzzing'' of the mobile phone vibrated on one side. Gu Beichen put down his goblet and picked it up. He looked at the caller ID and saw that it was mo Shaochen. He glanced at Ye Chenyu rubbing his temple and put it in his ear "Huh?" "Where is it?" Mo Shaochen''s voice came lazily. "Blues..." Mo Shaochen listened and smiled, "I happened to be nearby and went to find you!" Chapter 947 Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned, but his voice calmly overflowed his thin lips, "good." "See you later..." "Yes." Gu Beichen hung up the phone. "Shaochen, wait, come here. The person is nearby." Ye Chenyu glanced at Gu Beichen and lay lazily on the sofa. "What are you doing? Let me hide?" "It''s all in Los Angeles. The nature of your work and the opportunities to contact him in the future can''t be avoided..." Gu Beichen leaned over and extinguished the smoke in the ashtray. "I told you to hide?" With a smile of doubt, Gu Beichen glanced over with his unique sight. After ye Chenyu looked down, his head leaned back on the back of the sofa. "It''s better to meet each other first..." Ye Chenyu''s voice was evil. "I have a good relationship with Zixiao. I didn''t jump out of your circle." As a policeman, he must deal with many courts and lawyers... Especially criminal defense. Besides, starting tomorrow, the two of them may have more contact! Mo Shaochen came quickly and arrived in less than half an hour. "Let me introduce you," Gu Beichen said faintly, "Mo Shaochen, criminal defense lawyer... He, ye Chenyu, from the criminal investigation section of the general administration. It is estimated that you will have contact in the future." "Hello..." Mo Shaochen leaned out his hand gracefully. "I''ve heard of you before. I didn''t expect to meet under such circumstances." Ye Chenyu shook hands with Mo Shaochen and said evil: "I can hear more about Mo''s name..." Mo Shaochen sat down beside Gu Beichen. "I''m not curious where I heard you?" "Anyway, it''s not what Beichen said..." Mo Shaochen laughed. For this legend, ye Chenyu, who had been undercover for many years and was transferred back to the Bureau, was most likely to be the leader of the action team to protect him. As soon as he met, he was inexplicably fond of it. "It''s not what he said." "Ninety nine percent is uncle Qiang..." Ye Chenyu rubbed his forehead. "It seems that officer Wang has asked your opinion!" "Yes!" Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes, "then, do you have a chance to cooperate?" Ye Chenyu shrugged. "Still thinking..." he got up and poured Mo Shaochen wine. "I guess we have to see if there are any beauties in your entourage?!" Half joking, Mo Shaochen immediately laughed, "then it seems that you are going to wait for me to appoint someone?" Ye Chenyu raised his glass and smiled more evil ¡­¡­ "What are you looking at? You''re so fascinated..." Jian Mo came out after taking a bath, wiping her hair and looking at Li Xiaoyue holding her mobile phone for a long time. Li Xiaoyue sighed, "girl," she looked at Jian Mo, "Mo Shaochen sent me a text message..." Jane Mo''s action stagnated, and then a gossip on her face rubbed against Li Xiaoyue''s side, "what do you send, what do you send?" Li Xiaoyue handed the mobile phone to Jian Mo, and she quickly opened the screen Mo Shaochen: there is an international criminal court. Are you interested in joining? "..." Jane Mo''s face was excited, because she became stiff after seeing the text message, and then said, "this man sent you a text message in the middle of the night for work?!" "Then you think it''s flirting?" Li Xiaoyue asked back. Jian Mo glanced and threw his mobile phone back to Li Xiaoyue. "I support you to soak Ye Chenyu... It looks more emotional than Mo Shaochen." She said, got up and continued to wipe her hair. She said with some dissatisfaction: "you say, Mo Shaochen is also a cousin with ah Chen. How can one be the same to women and animals, and the other is the same as dead ducks?" "It is estimated that all the good genes have been taken away by your general manager Gu..." Li Xiaoyue said and sent a text message back to Mo Shaochen. Li Xiaoyue: elder martial brother, it''s not appropriate to talk about work this evening?! Mo Shaochen took out his mobile phone and replied with one hand to the text message: Well, I''ll go to your law firm for a formal talk tomorrow. "Don''t argue that I''m still working this big night?" Ye Chenyu laughed at the evil spirit in time. Gu Beichen glanced at him lightly and didn''t speak. "No way," Mo Shaochen pressed the send button, "I''m going to find more beauties to join... Officer Ye didn''t say that men and women match, and I''m not tired." "It depends on whether it''s for you or for me..." Ye Chenyu said irreverently. Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes and smiled. He shook his head helplessly about ye Chenyu''s evil At the same time, Jian Mo looked at the short breath on Li Xiaoyue''s mobile phone, bared her teeth and scolded: "Mo Shaochen deserves Shen Chu''s contempt for this man..." she hummed and added a sentence in her heart. Xiaoyue doesn''t want you back home. I think you''ll be single all your life No, he won''t be single all his life. He married his cases directly... Hum! "OK..." Li Xiaoyue turned off his cell phone. "I''m not angry yet. You''re angry first." With that, she got up and went to get a hair dryer to blow Jane Mo''s hair. Unlike the short hair just returned from England, Jane Mo''s hair is almost waist high now The most important thing is that Gu Beichen takes care of himself in the hospital bed for a year. Those with soft hair can take shampoo advertisements. "Girl, I really envy you." Li Xiaoyue said, "a Gu Beichen is worth everything." Jian Mo turned back when Li Xiaoyue turned off the hair dryer. "You will also have someone who makes you feel worth it... As long as you believe in it and work hard." "Must......" Li Xiaoyue said and smiled at Jane mo. A woman who loves and pursues love will always have luck... She firmly believes! The night passed gradually while two women were chatting in the same bed When the dawn cut through the darkness and the dawn penetrated the broken flower curtains and spilled into the bedroom, the two women slept in the dark. Li Xiaoyue completely forgot that Mo Shaochen asked her to talk with her at her law firm, and the mobile phone was turned off... Chu ran was nervous and forced to face Mo Shaochen. At the same time, the emperor''s senior management who just went to work is preparing to accept an upcoming storm "Secretary Su, is the president here?" Susan sat down and an insider from the executive called, "no, what''s up?" "Look at the news in Donghai this morning." Susan frowned, then opened the news in Donghai city and saw the eye-catching new product launch of a group Before she could react, another insider called in and told her to watch the news. Several major projects to be released by the emperor at the end of the second quarter have all leaked! The news immediately caused an uproar in the Emperor Everyone is talking about it one after another, and even, after gradually converging from several doubtful points, we come to a conclusion "There are not many people in the emperor who can know these big projects and the final decision at the same time?" "A few people, you really want more... I guess it''s the people on the top floor at most!" "The president can''t leak it himself. Isn''t it just Secretary Su and Xiao tezhu?" "Secretary Su is in the company. Now..." "You mean, shawster help?!" Chapter 948 "Impossible? After all, Xiao tezhu is very loyal to the president!" Someone looked around in doubt, and his voice said hesitantly. "Yes......" when the man said something, someone immediately retorted, "otherwise, during the time when the president''s wife had an accident, didn''t Xiao tezhu have been able to do it long ago?" "Don''t you understand?" Everyone looks at the real person "If you think about it, Xiao tezhu has no right to the important documents, and the finance is not in hand. Even if Xiao tezhu is capable, he is a worker... Moreover, I heard that the president often deducts Xiao tezhu''s year-end bonus for a small matter." "No?!" "Why not... You don''t think about it. Being an ox and a horse is on call. The last bit of anger is on Xiao tezhu. Who can do it?" Gradually, some people were shaken by his words. "Besides, these items are sold... That''s astronomical." The man snorted, "now Xiao tezhu is enlarging his vacation. Don''t you think about it. When have you seen Xiao tezhu on vacation for so many years? I heard it''s because of a quarrel with the President..." "What do you mean... Isn''t it that Xiao tezhu actually broke up with the president?" "I guess it''s almost the same. That''s why we have these things today... Tut Tut, but think about it, Xiao tezhu is also very cruel!" "Yes, anyway, after following the president for so many years, the president trusts him... Is it really good for him to do so?" "I can only say... People die for wealth and birds die for food!" Someone shrugged and said, suddenly, people looked at each other, and their faces were very complex. Because of the leakage of the project, the whole emperor was caught in an atmosphere of anxiety and gossip. Executives of various departments held emergency meetings to discuss response. "Chen Shao..." Susan followed Gu Beichen into the office. "Inform the executives of all departments to meet in half an hour." Gu Beichen opened his mouth indifferently. On his cold face, he couldn''t see how to panic. "Yes!" Susan answered and put the data sorted out in her hand in front of Gu Beichen. "These are the news that has been received so far. It is conservatively estimated that if all the projects at the end of the quarter are stranded, it is estimated that she will lose more than eleven figures." Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Even for the emperor, the tens of billions of projects are not a small impact Most importantly, if people in the industry know that the turmoil in the stock market alone will make the emperor upset. "Yes." Gu Beichen faintly responded and looked at the items that had been leaked. "Chen Shao..." Susan stopped talking. Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked, "huh?" Susan smiled at the corner of her mouth and asked, "do you think... Is Xiao Jing?" Gu Beichen slightly invisible light frowned under the sword eyebrow. The eagle''s eyes suddenly looked cold. At the same time, his voice said slightly: "this sentence, you shouldn''t ask." He lowered his eyes and continued to read the information, "go out first." "Yes..." Susan answered, with a trace of uneasiness on her face. At the moment of closing the door, she subconsciously looked at Gu Beichen and finally closed the door. Gu Beichen in the "click" light sound to come, the action of turning over the data stopped, then took the mobile phone, sent a text message out ¡­¡­ When Li Xiaoyue woke up, he first cooked porridge and ate it with Jian mo. According to what she says now, under the aura of Gu Beichen, Jane Mo is a national treasure... You can''t be cold, hungry or anything. However, now Jian Mo is in the recovery period. Whether it''s a car accident or having children later, Li Xiaoyue said, but she didn''t dare to be careless at all. "Would you like to go to the law firm with me?" Li Xiaoyue asked, "look at the place you designed?" "Don''t go..." Jian Mo said proudly, "wait, I''m going to Xiangyu, and then go to the emperor to find Shen Chu." "Tut Tut, the designer who doesn''t do well in her husband''s first love relationship is not a good woman..." Li Xiaoyue shook his head. "Then I''ll take you to Xiangyu by taxi. I''m going to the law firm." "OK..." Jane Mo answered and the two women went out together. Li Xiaoyue''s car was sent for repair, while Jian Mo was not allowed to drive by Gu Beichen due to physical reasons, so they had to take a taxi. "Remember to tell Mr. Gu that I''ll invite him to dinner in the evening." Li Xiaoyue said when the car arrived at Lingyu international. Jane morhu smiled and nodded, "remember... Don''t worry, I''m determined not to be soft in killing you." The two women looked at each other and smiled. Jane Mo got out of the car and entered Lingyu international. Li Xiaoyue looked at Jane mor into the office building, and then told the driver to go to the law firm. By the time she arrived, it was almost noon. "Sister Yue, why did you come?" Chu ran saw Li Xiaoyue push the door in and hurried forward, "turn off the phone when you call..." "What''s the matter? What''s the matter?" Li Xiaoyue looked unimpressed. "I thought there was no case. I turned off my mobile phone and was clean." With that, she took out her mobile phone and forgot to turn it on in the morning. "That..." Chu ran pointed to the meeting room. "Mo Bian came early in the morning and was waiting for you." "Wait for me?" Li Xiaoyue was stunned and suddenly remembered that Mo Shaochen sent her a text message last night. But she didn''t expect that he would really come to talk to her Li Xiaoyue handed Chu ran his bag and went to the meeting room. But the man hasn''t arrived yet. Chu ran suddenly remembered something and said, "sister Yue, yesterday''s car repair cost 1000 yuan..." Li Xiaoyue rubbed her eyebrows. She also expected the price. After all, Chu ran didn''t drive fast and the bumper was hit. How much can he repair? "Call ye Chenyu and ask her to call..." Li Xiaoyue said, handed Chu ran his mobile phone and entered the reception room. "Senior brother!" "Fortunately, it''s not noon..." Mo Shaochen looked at the time and said with a smile. Li Xiaoyue was a little embarrassed. "Well... I talked to Mo Mo late." "I guessed." Mo Shaochen said with a faint smile, "I''m looking for you, or what I said last night..." he said, taking out the information from his briefcase. "There''s a transnational criminal case on it. I''ll set up a temporary lawyer team. I''ll cooperate well with you this time to see if you''re interested." Li Xiaoyue listened, and a touch of complex emotion crossed his eyes. "Then say so..." Li Xiaoyue asked jokingly, "elder martial brother, this case near the city is to investigate me?" Mo Shaochen stared at Li Xiaoyue slightly and didn''t answer immediately. The atmosphere in the reception room is somewhat treacherous, and it''s not very good outside. "You don''t care who the owner is. It''s your responsibility anyway. You''re right to pay for the repair..." Chu ran rolled her eyes and said. Ye Chenyu leaned against the handrail of the stairs and looked evil. "Whoever the owner is, he will come to me for compensation..." he didn''t give Chu ran a chance to speak, "if she doesn''t want it, I can only take advantage of it." Then he hung up directly. Then he pushed the staircase door and went to Wang Qiang''s office "Uncle Qiang." "Think about it?" Wang Qiang looked at Ye Chenyu who came in and continued to look for something, "go or not?" Chapter 949 "You''ve decided. Do you still refer to my opinions?" Ye Chenyu pulled a chair and sat down. He took Wang Qiang''s Kung Fu tea and poured himself a cup. "Don''t say that," Wang Qiang stopped looking for something. "If you really don''t want to go, I won''t insist." Ye Chenyu has been undercover for so many years. How to say, he really loves it. "All right, uncle Qiang..." Ye Chenyu put down his cup. "I know what you think. Go this time. You don''t want to take advantage of this fat difference and bring it back to me." Wang Qiang smiled, "you boy, it seems that I have to give you a promotion." Ye Chenyu smiled, and his face was always lazy. I don''t know whether it''s because of his personality or because he''s been undercover for too long. He''s always a little ruffian. But just because of this ruffian spirit, he is most suitable for this action "Now that it''s decided, I''ll submit your file." Wang Qiang confirmed again, "I can tell you... If you submit it, you can''t regret it. You have to go." "Yes." Ye Chenyu answered and drank another cup of tea before getting up. "Should I have a few days off before I go?" "Three days!" Wang Qiang is not stingy. "Three days later, the team will be established. You have to come back and start running in the team members." "OK..." Ye Chenyu didn''t retort. After saying something, he left Wang Qiang''s office. In fact, to put it bluntly, he is an inexplicable person who parachutes when he comes back, in order to bully those who are not convinced. The world, either power to convince people, or... Only fist! ¡­¡­ "How do you want to hear my answer?" "I''m satisfied with your ability to cooperate for a while," Mo asked. "Is that why I''m satisfied?" Li Xiaoyue raised his eyebrows, "as expected." She answered confidently, took the information and glanced at it roughly, "is it very involved?" "Yes." Mo Shaochen''s expression was slightly dignified. "This time, I will form a lawyer group of at least six people, and it is possible to directly form ten people." Li Xiaoyue pondered, "does Chu Zixiao join?" Mo Shaochen shook his head. "His case in Yuncheng was too big before. The people above... Have ideas." After Li Xiaoyue came back, he also heard about the Yuncheng case. A lot of people were pulled off their horses. In their profession, the public security, procuratorial and judicial organs say that they are one. That''s why we should grasp the degree of internal relations... Otherwise, it''s really hard to say. Of course, behind Chu Zixiao is Gu Beichen, and he has nothing to fear. "What a pity," said Li Xiaoyue with a look of regret, "with him, I think we can have the lowest configuration." Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes and smiled, "you are so confident, which means I appreciate it..." as he said, he raised his eyes and looked right at Li Xiaoyue. They were slightly stunned. For a moment, it seemed that something crossed their eyes But when you want to see clearly, it disappears again. Li Xiaoyue looked away awkwardly. "I have the ability, naturally I will be confident..." she hurried to speak, trying to alleviate the strange smell around her. Mo Shaochen didn''t look away from Li Xiaoyue''s face, but gradually became deep and asked, "did you agree to join?" "Of course..." Li Xiaoyue smiled. "After this case, my value will rise again. How can I miss such a good opportunity?" Mo Shaochen smiled and shook his head. "I''m not sure I''ll win." After a pause, "I read the existing evidence, which is very unfavorable to our party." "There is only one truth. As long as we firmly believe that it has nothing to do with the parties, we have won half..." Li Xiaoyue raised his eyebrow. "That''s what senior brother said." Li Xiaoyue and Mo Shaochen smiled at each other and listened to her say, "it''s almost noon. Let''s have dinner together?" "Good!" Mo Shaochen answered with a smile, "please, welcome to join us." Li Xiaoyue raised her eyebrows and said it didn''t matter. They went out of the reception room together and saw Chu ran come angrily "The man said he wanted sister Yue to call in person to compensate..." Li Xiaoyue frowned, took the mobile phone and said, "let''s talk later. I''ll go to dinner with my senior brother. What do you eat? I''ll bring it to you later." "No, I''ll order takeout..." Chu ran glanced, then rubbed against Li Xiaoyue and said vaguely, "sister Yue, sometimes if you can seize the opportunity, don''t let go." "What?" Li Xiaoyue frowned. Chu ran looks at Mo Shaochen vaguely, and pulls a deceitful smile from the corners of her mouth. "..." Li Xiaoyue shook his head, went to get his bag and greeted Mo Shaochen to leave. Chu ran looked at the two people''s backs and glanced. "In fact, how do I think sister Yue is more suitable for Mo debate than the women in that restaurant... Look, everyone is criminal debate and has a common language." She smiled and whispered, "besides, if we quarrel, how interesting it is to move out with each other!" Chu ran imagined such a scene and immediately laughed ¡­¡­ The plane''s gears rubbed the ground with a harsh sound and landed at Los Angeles International Airport. Xiao Jing got off the plane with a cold face and went to the parking lot to pick up the car. He started the car and sped to the Emperor Group At the same time, the whole emperor was busy because of a sudden. But even so, in their spare time, everyone is still talking privately about whether Xiao Jing betrayed the Emperor ''squeak - '' Xiao Jing''s car has been parked in the parking space in front of the emperor''s gate after a wild drift in the parking lot. He was also wearing casual clothes, and his large Sunglasses covered his slightly heavy vision. Xiao Jing stepped directly into the emperor. When the security guard saw him, he was slightly stunned. "Xiao tezhu, are you... Are you back?" The front desk was also surprised to see the people coming in. "Yes." Xiao Jing answered indifferently and walked to the elevator It''s time for lunch break. Some people are waiting for the elevator when they come back from eating out "Hey, you say, is it Xiao tezhu?" The people waiting for the elevator chatted. "Anyway, according to your analysis, it''s almost him..." "What did you say?" Someone asked curiously. "You think, those projects were ordered when the president''s wife was unconscious. During that time, the president''s mind was on the president''s wife. Do you think... Is the best time?" "That''s true..." Someone echoed. "In fact, it doesn''t need to be so troublesome..." Xiao Jing looked at the chatting people and opened his mouth slowly. Just when they subconsciously turned back and looked at his stunned eyes, he took off his sunglasses and said slowly, "if the emperor wants me, I can transfer assets every minute, do you believe it?" As soon as they heard this, the corners of their mouths twitched Xiao Jing suddenly changed his leisurely look and his face became cold. "The emperor asked you to come, not to speculate about anything or disturb people''s hearts..." his eyes were suddenly cold. "If you think the days are too comfortable, the personnel department hopes to see your resignation letter at any time!" Chapter 950 With a "Ding", the elevator arrived in time. Xiao Jing coldly took back his sight and walked forward The people who had been waiting for the elevator subconsciously made way from the middle. Xiao Jing entered the elevator, glanced across the crowd and pressed the close key. "God, it''s too arrogant..." someone said horizontally, "isn''t it a special help? Do you really think you''re the president or something? You see our resignation letter..." "Yes!" Some people were dissatisfied and agreed, "I think he is so arrogant. It''s clear that it''s him... It''s estimated that he will come back and shout to catch the thief!" At a loss about what to do, the majority of people make complaints about each other. In fact, the whole company is talking about it, but they were hit by Xiao Jing If it''s really Xiao Jing, it''s OK. If not, I can''t tell how many small shoes they have to wear?! "Xiao tezhu looked terrible just now," a woman grinned secretly. "It felt like the momentum of the president." "A fox pretends to be a tiger..." a man snorted discontentedly, but in his eyes, he was obviously worried. Soon, the news of Xiao Jing''s return came from the emperor''s building. After the "Ding" sound, the elevator directly reaches the top floor. Susan went to the tea room to make a cup of coffee. When she saw the man coming out of the elevator, she was slightly surprised, "Xiao Jing? Why are you back?" "Chen Shao?" Xiao Jing asked with a gloomy face. "I went to the design department to find the young lady..." Susan said. "I guess I''m having dinner now." At the same time "Gu Zong, interview." Jane Mo holds a virtual microphone in her hand and hands it to Gu Beichen. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, looked at Jian Mo and brought her a bowl of soup. "Excuse me, Mr. Gu," Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen, fanned his eyelashes, smiled and asked, "what do you think of your Xiaojing cheating?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "cheating?!" "Yes..." Jian Mo said with a smile, "Why are you also the strongest CP of emperor group? Isn''t Xiao Jing cheating?" "..." Gu Beichen smiled helplessly and shook his head, until Jian Mo replied, "he didn''t think much... He made trouble himself and solved it himself." "People are on holiday. How to solve it?" Jane skimmed her mouth. Gu Beichen didn''t think so. "Don''t worry, I''ll be back today..." "So sure?" Jian Mo was a little curious. Seeing Gu Beichen''s serious nod, he immediately glanced and whispered, "I don''t believe you have no foundation..." Gu Beichen smiled. "Drink this soup. If you don''t go back later, go to my office to sleep for a while and go to the design department, huh?" "Yes." Jane Mo skillfully finished the soup, then got up with Gu Beichen and went back to the top floor. "Chen Shao..." "Xiao Jing, did you come back too soon?" Jian Mo looked at Xiao Jing standing at the entrance of the elevator with a hard face and said with a smile, "you are so accurate calculated by your Chen, which means I''m stuffed for you." "Young lady!" Xiao Jing shouted helplessly and then looked at Gu Beichen. "You go to rest first, huh?" Gu Beichen ignored Xiao Jing and looked at Jian Mo gently. Jane Mo smiled and nodded, then looked at Xiao Jing sympathetically and turned to Gu Beichen''s office. Gu Beichen looked at the time and told Susan, "inform the meeting at two o''clock." "OK." Susan answered and gave Xiao Jing a worried look. "You come with me..." Gu Beichen said indifferently. At the same time, the man had walked towards the tea room. Like his angry daughter-in-law, Xiao Jing silently followed Gu Beichen into the tea room. Seeing that Gu Beichen wanted to make coffee, he hurried up to the dog leg, "Chen Shao, I''ll come..." Gu Beichen glanced at him, put down his cup and sat on the sofa. Seeing Gu Beichen so, Xiao Jing felt uneasy. As soon as he heard about it, he hurried back, but it was obvious that the damage had been great. "Chen Shao, I was careless." Xiao Jing said in the end, "I didn''t care much about losing my wallet." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but took the coffee from Xiao Jing and sipped it. The eagle''s eyes were slightly drooping, and there was no emotion on his cold face. Xiao Jing only felt that the air around him became dignified. He sat down opposite Gu Beichen. "This matter was started by me and I will solve it." "How to solve it?" Gu Beichen''s voice was light without much emotion. His eagle eyes were slightly raised, and his ink pupil looked at Xiao Jing sharply. "For the projects that have been exposed, the direct loss will exceed 10 billion..." After a pause, Gu Beichen slowly said, "Xiao Jing, how many years of salary and year-end bonus can you reach this figure?" "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth and couldn''t react for a moment. Why does this involve his salary and year-end bonus again?! "Hmm..." Gu Beichen seemed to see Xiao Jing''s doubts and said slowly, "people in the whole company are saying that you are dissatisfied with my salary and often deduct your year-end bonus, so you betrayed." "Shit!" Xiao Jing "Teng" stood up, "do I need that little money?" Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing quietly and didn''t answer. Xiao Jing''s heart suddenly bristled, "Chen Shao, you know me." Gu Beichen nodded. Xiao Jing sat down again with a light in his eyes, "so you trust me, don''t you?" "Yes." Gu Beichen continued to nod, "I didn''t doubt you..." Xiao Jing immediately lifted his heart and slightly fell back to his chest. "However, if I trust you, I also want to explain to the shareholders..." Gu Beichen said again. "After all, the loss is so great. Although it''s not you, it''s because of you." Xiao Jing vomited blood when he thought that his wallet had been stolen and that someone had faked so many things with his ID card. "I will come up with a new plan before the end of the quarter to minimize the loss as much as possible..." Xiao Jing gritted his teeth. "But you''re on holiday!" Gu Beichen calmly looked at Xiao Jing and said, "it''s still enlarging the holiday." "In this case, can I still have a holiday?" Xiao Jingcheng glanced, "Chen Shao, don''t make fun of me..." "So you mean, you want to take leave?" Xiao Jing nodded bitterly. Chen Shao doesn''t blame him, but it''s a project of more than 10 billion. He said he didn''t feel guilty. It''s all a lie. The more Chen Shao trusts, the deeper his guilt will be. "Since you want to cancel your leave, I can only leave these things to you..." Gu Beichen said, "go and prepare for the meeting later." At the same time, Gu Beichen people have gone out. "Chen Shao..." When Gu Beichen came to the door of the tea room, Xiao Jing suddenly frowned. "Huh?" Xiao Jing got up and looked back at Gu Beichen. "Chen Shao, I will solve these things." Chapter 951 Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing for a while, then nodded slightly, and then turned and left the tea room. Trust is not built by money. It''s not measured by money Ten billion yuan is not a small amount for the emperor, but for Gu Beichen, an emperor is not worth a Xiao Jing. This is not only trust, but also the feeling of never leaving You can make money when you have no money, but if you lose it... You can''t get it back. Before the meeting began, everyone was full of conjectures. Whether Xiao Jing''s return is to cover up or what, everyone is not sure. We are just waiting for the meeting and expect Gu Beichen to give us a "clear" instruction. In the conference room, the atmosphere was stiff and treacherous. Everyone looked at each other, but no one dared to say anything before the meeting. The door of the conference room was suddenly pushed open. Gu Beichen came in with one hand, followed by Xiao Jing, who had changed his formal clothes. "Meeting..." Gu Beichen sat down and eagle eyes crossed everyone in the meeting room. "Before the meeting, there was an announcement." They secretly gave information to the people around them, trying to guess what Gu Beichen was going to say. "Xiao Jing cancels the holiday, starting from today..." Gu Beichen glances over several executives close to him indifferently, "... Dismisses the post of Special Administrative Assistant to the president." As soon as they heard this, they looked at each other, as if they thought it was reasonable for such a result. However, Gu Beichen''s next words stunned everyone and made them unable to respond. "After dismissing his previous position..." Gu Beichen''s voice, calm from beginning to end, "will appoint Xiao Jing as executive vice president!" "Hissing..." there was a sound of inverted suction. They stared at Gu Beichen incredulously. Xiao Jing frowned slightly. Obviously, he didn''t think of Gu Beichen''s arrangement. "From this moment on, Xiao Jing will be fully responsible for the restart and related matters of all projects at the end of the quarter. During my absence, I can exercise all the rights of the CEO." Gu Beichen spoke indifferently and continued, "in addition, I don''t want to hear all the gossip about Xiao Jing after today." In the meeting room, except Xiao Jing''s heart was moved, the rest of the people were full of thoughts. They didn''t expect Gu Beichen to trust Xiao Jing so much The whole meeting lasted only half an hour. It was basically Gu Beichen. Let''s listen again. When the whole emperor spread the contents of the meeting, the people who met Xiao Jing at the elevator were whispering one by one Xiao Jing said: he doesn''t need so much trouble if he wants an emperor. So... It''s not big talk! "Your Gu always trusts Xiao Jing so much that he''s not afraid that the real emperor doesn''t have his surname Gu?" Shen Chu drew a design drawing and asked casually. Jian Mo ate the cake given to Shen Chu by someone who didn''t know, "in fact, I''m different from what you think..." "Huh?" Shen Chu raised his eyes, "what do you mean?" Jane Mo glanced. "I always feel that my boss is in the pit Xiaojing." "Why?" Shen Chu doesn''t understand. "Although I don''t know what happened this time, whether Xiao Jing himself was framed or what..." Jian Mo put the last bite of cake into his mouth and said vaguely, "but I know that I am the one who will benefit in the end." After hearing this, Shen Chu didn''t understand it any more. Jian Mo raised her eyebrows with a bright light in her eyes and said slowly, "because President Gu and I plan to travel, but President Gu doesn''t want to worry about the company on the road..." Shen Chu immediately understood, "if Xiao Jing had a holiday, it would be impossible. But now Xiao Jing is back..." Jane Mo smiled and shrugged. "Your Gu is really inhuman..." Shen Chu shook his head unbearably. "Looking back, Xiao Jing knew the truth. I''m afraid he''ll cry." As soon as Jane Mo listened, she imagined such a scene and suddenly laughed Well, she should give Xiao Jingjia a year-end bonus, just for his "cooperation" and come back! Time passes day by day. Xiao Jing is busy day and night, and Gu Beichen, who should be equally busy, spends a lot of time with Jian Mo to recover. During this period, they moved from the mid level villa to Changhuan garden villa area. J also has a new name, called ''Jian Yao''. Jane Mo hopes he can be sunny and full of positive energy Lose a brother and get a brother. In fact, Jane Mo thinks that God is fair many times. "Mommy, if you go on a trip with Daddy, I''ll arrange my own time." Jane Jie said while she was doing her homework. "How do you arrange it?" Jane Mo asked Jane Jie. Unfortunately, naibao didn''t want to travel with them. "I will learn piano and cello with Uncle first, and then explore with my grandparents..." Jane Jie raised her eyes and said, "I don''t like the kind of trip you and Daddy have." "..." Jian Mo twitched at the corner of his mouth and then looked at Jian Yao, "what about you?" "I won''t go with you either..." Jian Yao said proudly at once. "When the holiday comes, I have an appointment with my classmates to go to Tibet, which is a place I want to go for a long time." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and said, "it''s up to you. It''s like I have to travel with you... Ah Chen and I can live together without you." Listening to her dissatisfied chatter, Jian Jie and Jian Yao looked at each other and smiled. They were busy with their own affairs. With Xiao Jing in the emperor''s seat, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo began to plan the travel time with ease. As for the return date... They said they wanted to follow their heart. Gu Beichen plans to take Jian Mo to see the buildings under several masters first, and then go to Britain to the place where he once lived the most rotten Just a few days after the two left Los Angeles, Mo Shaochen''s lawyer team had been formed. "The plane flies to London at 9 pm," Mo Shaochen looked at the people in the conference room. "Let''s meet at the airport at 7 pm. Is there a problem?" The members of the accompanying lawyer group shook their heads one after another, and Mo Shaochen signaled to adjourn the meeting. "Xiao Yue..." Li Xiaoyue was about to leave when Mo Shaochen called, "elder martial brother?" Mo Shaochen asked, "I''ll pick you up in the evening?" "No, I''ll go by myself..." Li Xiaoyue refused. "OK." Mo Shaochen answered without reluctance. "Elder martial brother is all right, I''ll go first..." Li Xiaoyue said, saw Mo Shaochen nodding, and then left with Chu ran. "Sister Yue, why don''t you get on the road?" Chu ran clenched her teeth and said. "Huh?" Li Xiaoyue wondered. Chu ran turned her eyes. "If Mo Bian wants to pick you up, you agree... Women have to be coquettish and show weakness, and men have the desire to protect!" Li Xiaoyue has a headache and doesn''t know when to start. Chu ran seems to be particularly keen on "matching" her with Mo Shaochen. Isn''t this little girl who likes Mo Shaochen?! You can''t get it yourself, and the fat and water don''t flow into the fields of outsiders? Just thinking, Li Xiaoyue''s cell phone rang. She took it out, saw it was Ye Chenyu''s, and immediately picked it up. "I said Mr. Ye, I don''t want the car repair fee. Can''t I? The money will be paid to you as my personal tax... Are you finished?" Chapter 952 "Dinner together in the evening?" Ye Chenyu didn''t speak until Li Xiaoyue finished. Li Xiaoyue opened her mouth and almost burst into foul language. Is it because he was kicked in the head by a donkey that every time he spoke, chickens and ducks spoke. A thousand dollars, he doesn''t call her account, he has to give it to Last time she went, not only did she not get the money, but she was also wronged by him for a meal! She lost a lot, okay?! "I''m sorry, I''m going on a business trip at night. I''m not free..." Li Xiaoyue said, gritting his teeth and hung up angrily! "That ye Chenyu again?!" Chu ran bit her teeth. "How can there be such a policeman? It''s too shameless..." she said, humming discontentedly, "sister Yue, he doesn''t want to chase you?" "This bitch, you''d better not chase me, or throw his face every minute..." Li Xiaoyue got on the car angrily. Chu ran got into the car and nodded heavily, "that is, compared with the elegant and elegant Mo Bian, he is a swan and a lump of dog shit!" "..." Li Xiaoyue listened to Chu Ran''s description and twitched uncontrollably at the corners of his mouth, "be careful he accuses you of abusing people''s public servants." "Then he should also be able to hear..." Chu ran said dismissively. "Seriously, sister Yue, you must not be chased by Ye Chenyu. Think about us. What a good man!" Li Xiaoyue is really going crazy. "Chu ran, you like Mo Shaochen so much. Go after him. Why push it to me?" "But sister Yue has been secretly in love with Mo debate for so many years. Of course, sister Yue, you first?!" Chu ran said solemnly, "I still know the truth of first come, first served." "..." Li Xiaoyue''s face was stiff, and subconsciously asked, "who said I had a crush on him?" "The one I met in the restaurant last time," Chu ran fanned her eyes, saw Li Xiaoyue look confused, and explained, "that''s the one I thought was Mo''s girlfriend..." "What did Shen Chu tell you?" Li Xiaoyue clenched his teeth. "Also, when did you have a good relationship with Shen Chu? Can you talk about these things?" "Just now... She just came here to consult about something, and then she talked about you..." Chu ran was a little frightened by Li Xiaoyue''s appearance, and said timidly, "then she said that sister Yue, you have been secretly in love for many years..." Li Xiaoyue''s eyes stared bigger and bigger, and Chu Ran''s voice became smaller and smaller. But she still said, "she also said... She''s not Mo Bian''s girlfriend. Let me tell you... Let you rest assured and boldly chase Mo Bian and say... Come on!" "..." Li Xiaoyue twitched uncontrollably at the corners of his mouth. Chu Ran''s face was slightly bitter, but she couldn''t help asking curiously, "sister Yue, you... Really have a secret love for many years?" "..." Li Xiaoyue was speechless. Chu ran immediately smiled, "sister Yue, in that case, why do you seem to be unreasonable and indisputable except for business? Is it hard to get, or do you think that what is difficult to catch is worth cherishing?" "...." Li Xiaoyue helped the forehead, "can you drive?" She closed her eyes and wanted to find Shen Chu and scold, "or, you get off the bus and I''ll go by myself..." Chu ran felt that Li Xiaoyue was really going to be angry, grinned secretly, didn''t dare to say anything, sat upright, started the car and left ¡­¡­ Ye Chenyu leaned against the wall with his pocket in one hand and his mobile phone in the other hand. Thinking of Li Xiaoyue''s angry speech just now, he smiled with evil charm at the corners of his mouth, showing danger. "Brother Yu, they have been integrated." Qiao Rui, deputy head of the protection team, said. Ye Chenyu said "well" and looked at the time before saying: "inform everyone to assemble at the airport at 6:30." "Yes!" Qiao Rui answered and turned away. Ye Chenyu looked at the protection team in front of him who was checking his equipment. Then he got up and drove to the general administration. "Uncle Qiang." "This is the proof of your weapons and the shipping documents." Wang Qiang handed the document bag to Ye Chenyu. "In foreign countries, it is not a last resort to use guns and do not cause unnecessary international problems." "I know..." Ye Chenyu answered. "This time, it''s estimated to be a month or two fast, but it''s not necessarily slow..." Wang Qiang sighed. "Chenyu, think twice before you leap." "Ensure that the task is completed." Ye Chenyu said without much emotion in his voice. Wang Chenyu said, "it''s difficult for you to hide your shoulder this time. I just want to pat you on the shoulder again." Ye Chenyu pulled at the corners of his mouth and said nothing. He has been undercover for so many years. In fact, he doesn''t care about many things anymore However, Mo Shaochen was involved this time, but he was a little hesitant. "All right, go and prepare." Wang Qiang said heavily. "Uncle Qiang, take care of my mother for me." Before leaving, ye Chenyu still explained. Wang Qiang nodded and didn''t say anything. He just watched Ye Chenyu leave. His eyes showed helplessness. After leaving the General Administration, ye Chenyu went to the supermarket to buy many daily necessities and other things and sent them to his mother After a meal with mother ye, she went to the airport. This time, there are ten lawyers and two assistants, seven men and three women For the convenience of the protection team, except that ye Chenyu and Qiao Rui are the leaders of the protection team, the number of people is not counted, and there are also seven men and three women special police accompanying them. Ye Chenyu led everyone to check in the guns before they were ready to enter the customs. "Brother Yu, Mo argued over there..." Qiao Rui motioned with his chin. Ye Chenyu looked over and saw that Mo Shaochen was talking to several accompanying lawyers "You take your brothers through the customs first." Ye Chenyu gave orders and walked to Mo Shaochen. Suddenly, ye Chenyu caught a glimpse of someone looking down at his mobile phone and hit him Instinctively, he leaned aside slightly and heard an exclamation of ''ah''. Ye Chenyu turned around and saw Li Xiaoyue holding a glass of water. Because of his sudden deviation, her inertial steps couldn''t stop, and the water in the paper cup splashed on herself. "How do you walk..." Li Xiaoyue asked angrily. When she saw Ye Chenyu''s evil smile, her eyes stared, "it''s you again!" "Are we destined for each other?" Ye Chenyu smiled at the angry Li Xiaoyue and said. Li Xiaoyue was in a hurry. "Who is destined for you... I''ve been unlucky for eight years. The car you made last time went into the garage, and now it''s splashed with water!" Ye Chenyu glanced at Li Xiaoyue''s clothes wet by the water, and the evil ruffian smiled, "you see I''m too excited and wet?" Wet?! Poof "Ye Chenyu, did you get wet with excitement?!" Li Xiaoyue roared angrily. The people around looked at it one after another, and their eyes were surprised Chapter 953 "Teng" once, Li Xiaoyue blushed like a cooked lobster. She glared at Ye Chenyu fiercely and felt that she must be at odds with this person. Therefore, every time she met, she could be embarrassed. "Obscene!" Li Xiaoyue gnashed his teeth. "Fortunately, taxpayers don''t support people like you... Hum!" "Obscene?" Ye Chenyu''s smile deepened, "Xiao Yueyue, where did you see me dirty?" He looked innocent. "Moreover, in that case, it was your own thought that was polluted. How can you say I was obscene?" "Don''t shout me so disgusting... I don''t know you well." Li Xiaoyue said angrily. "Not familiar?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. "Just now you said you were excited and wet, and you weren''t familiar?" "..." Li Xiaoyue bit her teeth and decided not to talk to Ye Chenyu. This man is a fool. He is the second, and no one dares to be the first Turn around and go in the direction of Li Xiaochen. Ye Chenyu found the woman more and more interesting. While shouting Li Xiaoyue, he followed up. "What are you doing with me?" After taking a few steps, Li Xiaoyue was finally angry. "First of all, this is the airport. It''s a public place. I have the right to walk freely." Ye Chenyu didn''t explain to Li Xiaoyue, but deliberately said, "besides, with so many people, it''s possible that our destination is the same? What do you mean I follow you?" Li Xiaoyue felt that if she didn''t bear it hard, she would smash half a cup of water directly into Ye Chenyu''s face. How can there be such a shameless man in this world "OK..." Li Xiaoyue pulled the corners of his mouth and said with a smile, "you... Whatever!" Li Xiaoyue gnashed his teeth and then turned and continued to walk to Mo Shaochen. Ye Chenyu still followed her with a smile. Li Xiaoyue wanted to stop and scold him several times, but in the end, he held back. Watching Li Xiaoyue step harder and harder because of her anger, ye Chenyu''s smile spread to the bottom of his eyes Mo Shaochen saw Li Xiaoyue coming and just wanted to talk. His eyes fell on Ye Chenyu, who was closely behind her. Then he gracefully hooked the corner of his mouth, "Chenyu..." Under the surprised look of Li Xiaoyue, ye Chenyu came forward and looked at several people around him, "your people haven''t arrived yet?" "I still need Xiao Yue''s assistant and two other lawyers..." Mo Shaochen answered and asked, "have all the team passed?!" Yes, yes. The protection team will come in advance to check in the guns. Mo Shaochen knows that. Ye Chenyu nodded and looked funny at Li Xiaoyue, who was stuck in his throat. "Xiao Yueyue, are you uncomfortable?" "..." Li Xiaoyue twitched at the corners of his mouth. Mo Shaochen frowned slightly. For the title of Ye Chenyu, he obviously had some unspeakable feelings, "do you know?" "Of course, it''s quite ripe..." Ye Chenyu still smiled deeply, "right?" Li Xiaoyue subconsciously looked at Mo Shaochen, "who is familiar with you?!" Ye Chenyu smiled but didn''t speak. Li Xiaoyue suddenly found that she was fooled by him again He said that deliberately, and her instinctive retort fell into other people''s ears, just like trying to cover up. Li Xiaoyue glared at Ye Chenyu angrily. Her expression just fell in Mo Shaochen''s sight, but showed a kind of delicacy. Slightly invisible light frowned under the sword eyebrow, and there was a strange emotion across it. Mo Shaochen quickly restrained his mind and just introduced with a light smile: "this is the leader of the protection group, ye Chenyu..." Li Xiaoyue just felt that he was going to have a myocardial infarction. Thinking of what ye Chenyu just said, "the destination is the same", I can''t wait to kick him. Mo Shaochen introduced Ye Chenyu''s lawyers one by one. Just now, the remaining three also arrived. He also introduced them. "Sister Yue, how can I feel haunted?" Chu ran rubbed against Li Xiaoyue and groaned, "sister Yue, two men are walking together. I think this'' trip ''has a play to play." Li Xiaoyue looked at the eye and stained, and he was already unable to do so. He did not want to make complaints about it. When the people entered the customs, the members of the lawyer group and the protection group got to know each other. After a while, they became familiar because they were similar in age. "How do you and Chenyu feel a little wrong?" Mo Shaochen bought water for Li Xiaoyue and looked at Ye Chenyu, who was explaining things to the team members. Li Xiaoyue only felt that hearing the words "Ye Chenyu" at this moment could give him a headache. "It''s hard to say..." Li Xiaoyue rubbed his forehead and said. Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue''s helpless appearance and smiled, "it''s rare to see someone make you so helpless..." Li Xiaoyue pulled down the corners of his mouth with some embarrassment, "that''s a man who hasn''t met such a scoundrel before!" As soon as Mo Shaochen heard this, he immediately smiled and shook his head. "This time in the past, there were many opportunities for mutual cooperation. You have to be depressed all the time?" "How sad..." Li Xiaoyue sighed, "fortunately, what I need to face every day is the senior brother of the chief lawyer of the lawyer group, not the leader of the protection group." Mo Shaochen listened to Li Xiaoyue say so, and his sight involuntarily became deep Li Xiaoyue didn''t realize what he said at all, but he was a little uncomfortable from the sight of Mo Shaochen. When she realized what she had said, she grinned secretly and was a little embarrassed. "Well, I''ll go to the bathroom..." Li Xiaoyue hurried up to hide his embarrassment. "Well" came immediately. Li Xiaoyue covered his nose, and tears were about to fall from the pain. "Xiao Yue..." Mo Shaochen frowned. Ye Chenyu also frowned, "how can you be careless when you are so big?" Li Xiaoyue still covered his nose. Because of the stinging pain, his eyes were filled with a thin layer of water mist. He looked at Ye Chenyu, "I must have done something immoral in my last life, and I will provoke you in this life!" "..." Ye Chenyu frowned. Before he spoke, Li Xiaoyue stared at him angrily and left. "Your Liang Zi seems not light..." Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue''s back and said, looking at Ye Chenyu. "A thousand yuan beam." Ye Chenyu sat down and folded his legs lazily. "A thousand dollars?" Mo Shaochen was puzzled. Ye Chenyu glanced at him and smiled. "The car crashed before, and then he planned to pay back the money. Who knows that he forgot to bring his wallet that day..." he shrugged, "well, she paid for the last meal." "Xiao Yue is not a stingy person." Mo Shaochen frowned. "Ye Yu said with a sharp smile that day." I didn''t think she was tired! " Mo Shaochen listened and smiled helplessly, "no wonder Xiao Yue hates you. She is a person with strong principles." "Lawyers should be principled, but if they are so principled in private, how boring?" Ye Chenyu looked at Li Xiaoyue''s back and said jokingly, "random life is interesting..." Chapter 954 The gears of the plane roared through the night. The plane penetrated the thick clouds and flew from Los Angeles to London Ye Chenyu supported his arms on the handrail, slightly tilted his head, looked at Li Xiaoyue, who was separated by only one aisle, and a strange smile seemed to appear on the corners of his mouth. Li Xiaoyue and Mo Shaochen sat together, originally to plan to be bored on the road, but also to study the case first. However, there is a pair of eyes like a detector, staring at you all the time. Anyone who can calm down must have a dead heart. But obviously, Li Xiaoyue can''t. Li Xiao Yu stared back at him angrily. "Elder martial brother..." Li Xiaoyue looked back. "Do you mind if we change our position?" Mo Shaochen shook his head with a smile, looked at Ye Chenyu, and then changed his position with Li Xiaoyue. Ye Chenyu smiled directly and made a sound with a hint of "I knew you would change your position", which made Li Xiaoyue more angry. Fortunately, it''s on the plane at the moment. Otherwise, Li Xiaoyue may be directly scolded by Ye Chenyu''s laughter. "Listen to Chenyu," Mo Shaochen looked at Ye Chenyu''s intentional appearance, smiled, shook his head, looked at Li Xiaoyue and asked in a low voice, "is it because you have a tie with him?" "Yes, not really." Li Xiaoyue said dully. "That morning Yu really didn''t bring his wallet..." Mo Shaochen explained, "I just met some time ago. Although I was a little evil, I was pretty good." Li Xiaoyue leaned back on his seat a little dull. "Elder martial brother, sometimes I hate a person. That starts from the first impression." Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes and smiled, "well, if you say so, I want to thank you for your first impression of me?" "..." the corners of Li Xiaoyue''s mouth stiffened, and his face turned slightly red because of embarrassment. "You have a gossip assistant..." Mo Shaochen saw Li Xiaoyue''s doubts and kindly explained. "Chu, ran!" Li Xiaoyue clenched his teeth and shouted. Hearing Chu ran sneeze in the oblique rear, he was puzzled about how to chat well and sneezed suddenly. "I..." Li Xiaoyue wanted to explain, but just opened his mouth and felt as if he wanted to hide something. He simply said, "yes, the first impression was very good, so he chose law." "Well, the right choice." Mo Shaochen nodded with a smile. Just when Li Xiaoyue''s face was more embarrassed, he converged his eyes. He didn''t want to make the atmosphere too embarrassing. He took another piece of information and handed it to her. "If you can''t sleep, just look at this. If you don''t understand, let''s talk about it." "OK..." Li Xiaoyue took it with a smile. Ye Chenyu glanced at Li Xiaoyue from the gap of Mo Shaochen''s body, and looked at her face with ruddy eyes that hadn''t faded in time. Her eyes were slightly deep, and her eyes crossed Mo Shaochen. Ye Chenyu converged his eyes, closed his eyes and began to fake sleep ¡­¡­ Finland. The morning sun spread lazily in every corner of Helsinki, with the warm smell of early summer. "Good morning, husband!" Jane Mo hummed and rubbed her face in Gu Beichen''s arms. Gu Beichen kissed at the corner of her mouth, "good morning, wife..." He looked at the man in his arms constantly arching towards himself and sighed, "light a fire early in the morning? Do you want to abolish me..." Jian Mo felt that the hot thing had a vigorous development trend, hurried back, grinned at Gu Beichen, "I''ll wash, and then we''ll go to the Finnish building." "OK." Gu Beichen responded with a drowning voice. Jane Mo got up excited and hurried to wash Finland building, her favorite master of modern emotional architecture, one of the representative works of Alvar Aalto... Ha ha! Looking at Jian Mo''s cheerful back, Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a radian from his heart and got out of bed at the same time. After taking his mobile phone, Gu Beichen called Xiao Jing. "Chen Shao, it''s morning on your side, and it''s midnight here..." Xiao Jingjing slumped on the sofa. "You''re playing, I''m trying hard... You''re still abusing me, really?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly deep. "Mo''er said, I should always care about you and show compassion for my subordinates. It''s my responsibility." Xiao Jing secretly feigned and felt very depressed. "Chen Shao, when things happen, you have planned to forcibly acquire those companies, haven''t you?" Gu Beichen was noncommittal. "So, although it happened suddenly..." Xiao jingpi said with a smile, "but you can take the opportunity to be the shopkeeper!" "Otherwise?" Gu Beichen asked with an eyebrow, "I''ll stay, you have a holiday, and I''ll clean up the mess for you?" "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth and said angrily, "Chen Shao, I''m lucky that I was moved by you that day." He didn''t ask for anything. He even pushed aside all opinions and told the emperor his status of Xiao Jing But in the end, he was so grateful that he had to "thank Lord longen" that he found that Gu Beichen took one step to see a hundred steps. What does it mean that he can exercise all the rights of the chief executive in his absence? That''s completely to set yourself up, which means... Try not to disturb him in the future. He''s playing happily with his wife! What do you mean being sold and counting money for the seller? He Xiao Jing is "You still have the strength to scold. It seems that you don''t need to care at all..." Gu Beichen said indifferently. "In that case, emperor, I won''t worry about it at all." "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth. Gu Beichen continued, "well, it''s getting late over there. Let''s have a rest early..." Without waiting for Xiao Jing to speak, he hung up the phone. At the beginning, when things came out and the project leaked, he really wanted to directly acquire those companies that had exposed the news Forced means, people are in danger. For those subsequent projects bought from improper means, naturally, they should consider whether it is appropriate to compensate the company or just look at the immediate interests. However, Xiao Jing poked the basket himself, and naturally he solved it himself. But Gu Beichen took the opportunity to throw all the responsibility to Xiao Jing Well, that''s all. After both Gu Beichen and Jian Mo washed, they had breakfast in the hotel before walking down the street together and walking leisurely in the direction of the Finnish building "You just called Xiao Jing?" Jane Mo asked briskly. "Yes." "Did he react... Did you pit him?" Gu Beichen frowned and was a little dissatisfied with Jian Mo''s adjective. However, he spoiled and said along with her words: "he started the matter. He didn''t cooperate. I don''t think the pit can be found!" With a smile, Jane felt that her family Gu was sometimes "rogue" and quite cute. "Ah Chen..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen dotes on Jian mo. Jane Mo turned slightly and walked backwards. At the same time, she smiled and said, "let''s go back from this trip and give Xiao Jing a real holiday?" Chapter 955 "OK..." Gu Beichen answered without hesitation. The smile of Jian Mo''s mouth swings out soft and gorgeous colors in the morning light. She turned around and continued to walk parallel with Gu Beichen along the Bank of Deloitte bay to Finland building Gu Beichen looked at the smile on Jian Mo''s face deeply, and softened his eyes with satisfaction. This woman, how he wants to be around him all the time?! However, she has her independent life. She loves her work and all kinds of buildings outlined by that drawing pen She opens the way and he covers... It''s never just talk. She wants to fly. He lets her fly. When she is tired and wants to stop, he can give her the most solid arm... Just like that. Finland building is in the center of Helsinki City, close to the Bank of Deloitte Bay. The overall appearance is white, just like a huge piano leaning quietly against the lake. The piano body with smooth lines is reflected in the lake water, like a beautiful landscape painting. In such a distinctive building, listening to a concert, Jane Mo felt that her whole life was perfect. The whole day''s journey was filled with Gu Beichen''s plan. When they were at the beginning of the Lantern Festival, they went to the local characteristic restaurant for dinner, and then walked back to the hotel hand in hand. "What are you doing?" Gu Beichen answered the phone and went into the suite. He saw Jian Mo smiling at the computer. Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "I found that if I don''t like architectural design in the future, I can also write novels..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and asked, "what''s the matter?" Jane Mo puts the notebook on her lap in front of Gu Beichen. He looks down It is a novel forum, with an article entitled "I love you all the time", which has a high click through rate and reply rate. "All my life, help each other?" Gu Beichen tilted his head and looked at Jian Mo deeply. Jane Mo knelt down on the bed and kissed Gu Beichen on the cheek, "our story..." she said seriously, her arms had surrounded him, and said with eyes like silk, "ah Chen, would you mind?" Gu Beichen couldn''t stand the seduction of Jian mo. the computer was directly thrown onto the storage stool at the end of the bed, and then turned around Jian Mo''s waist, which had already overwhelmed her on the bed "If you like..." Gu Beichen said in a low voice. Her thin lips outlined the lip shape of Jian mo. finally, under her slight breath, her thick tongue pushed away her shell teeth and drove straight in, entangled with her delicate and soft. In such a big room, the sounds of singing and panting were mixed in the rough breathing sound. Jian Mo seems to curse Gu Beichen. Once touched, he can''t control himself. He can only keep forging ahead to make him manic and happy. ¡­¡­ When Li Xiaoyue and his party arrived in London, it was the night of local time. They couldn''t get over some jet lag. They were as tired as playing stimulants. However, fortunately, Mo Shaochen took this into consideration. He arrived two days ahead of schedule to make everyone jet lag, but also to adapt. "Sister Yue, do you sleep? If not, let''s go to Oxford Street?" Chu ran was young after all, completely free from the fatigue of the journey, and asked excitedly. Li Xiaoyue shook her head angrily. "Go ahead. I''m not interested in shopping..." she said while packing her things. "I''ll discuss the process with my senior brother later." Chu ran left her mouth, deliberately raised her eyebrows and said, "Oh... It''s a world of two..." She lengthened her voice, and there was an obvious playfulness in her tone. "I warn you, we are out to work this time. Don''t talk nonsense to me!" Li Xiaoyue threw down his clothes and looked helpless. Chu ran laughed, "yes, no, you and Mo argue, then..." she rubbed her cheek against Li Xiaoyue, "... Where''s officer ye?!" "..." Li Xiaoyue twitched uncontrollably at the corner of his mouth, "Hey, can''t I marry out? Do you want a little girl to match me?" Chu ran tooted her mouth, then glanced at the corner of her mouth and said, "I''ve noticed. Officer Ye always pays attention to you all the way..." as she said, she began to frown and wink, "also, the blanket on you fell off. Officer Ye covered it for you!" Li Xiaoyue frowned slightly. "Really, Mo Bian happened to go to the bathroom at that time..." Chu ran said seriously. "Everyone slept soundly. He could still notice that your blanket fell off..." "How do you know since they are all sleeping soundly?" Li Xiaoyue retorted. Chu ran shook her head and said, "because I was reading a novel and didn''t sleep!" Li Xiaoyue''s face was slightly wrong. Chu ran didn''t find it, but said with a grin: "in fact, I sat with Meng Meng and heard a lot about officer ye... Tut Tut, I really can''t see that he is a man. Sister Yue, I''ll tell you, if you''re not interested in Mo''s argument, I think officer Ye is also good, at least..." "Aren''t you going shopping?" Li Xiaoyue interrupted Chu ran. After only flying for more than ten hours, she was speechless about the 180 degree change in her attitude towards Ye Chenyu. As for whether ye Chenyu is male or not, it really has nothing to do with her. All she knows is that she and this man are born to repel each other, wrong! Li Xiaoyue pushed Chu ran away. After packing up, he looked at the time. It was very late. After thinking about it, she didn''t go to Mo Shaochen to ask about the case. She just took a bath, changed her clothes and planned to walk around the hotel. It''s not the first time for Li Xiaoyue to come to London. When Jian Mo was repairing architectural design at UCL, she had a holiday and would also come to see her and xiaojieshao. The night in London was very comfortable. The gentle wind blew her face, which made Li Xiaoyue, who couldn''t get over the jet lag, more energetic. Suddenly, Li Xiaoyue stopped. She looked at a shop across the road and was slightly surprised that the shop hadn''t closed yet. Li Xiaoyue took out his mobile phone and called Jian Jie: "Xiao Jie, guess where I am now?" Jian Jie sat on the piano stool, turned his mouth and said, "if the store around the transformer hasn''t closed yet, you should be nearby or inside." "..." Li Xiaoyue said with a black line on his face, "can''t you pretend you don''t know, just ask and let me cry?" Jane Jie shrugged. "Second mom, you should be late when you arrive in London today... But you call me, isn''t it obvious?" "Not cute at all..." Listening to Li Xiaoyue''s dissatisfied voice, Jian Jie immediately said softly, "second mother, are you going to send me to do it?" He asked, laughing like a blooming flower, "I''ve seen the news. Recently, bumblebee has a new style. Will you give me that?" Su Junli leaned on the grand piano, his slender fingers grabbed the glass water cup and drank water. Listening to Jane Jie''s flattering words, the smile spread from the bottom of his eyes. How time flies The four and a half years in London seemed to be the same as yesterday. Listening to Jian Jie''s obedient voice, Li Xiaoyue could imagine the little guy selling cute for the Bumblebee, and his heart was soft all of a sudden. "Buy..." Li Xiaoyue said with a smile in her eyes. As soon as Jian Jie listened, he immediately gave Li Xiaoyue a big girl across the phone. "Sweet......" Li Xiaoyue smiled and said a few words, then hung up the phone and went to the hand shop opposite. As soon as he entered the door, Li Xiaoyue asked the boss, "Hello, what''s the latest version of Bumblebee?" "Sorry, the last one was asked by the gentleman..." the boss looked sorry. Li Xiaoyue turned and looked at the person the boss said At the right time, ye Chenyu turned his head with the bumblebee in his hand, and the two looked at each other. Suddenly, one smiled and the other stared. Chapter 956 "It''s you again..." Li Xiaoyue gritted his teeth. Ye Chenyu smiled. "Yes, it''s me again... Have a problem?" Li Xiaoyue looked at the new bumblebee in his hand. After staring at Ye Chenyu, he looked at it and asked the boss, "excuse me, are there any new ones in the follow-up? I will stay in London for a while, you can wait." The boss looked sorry. "Sorry, this is a limited edition. This gentleman has the last one in his hand." "..." Li Xiaoyue twitched at the corners of his mouth and thought that he had just promised Jian Jie that he would buy it for him. He couldn''t come in just now. Let''s break his promise?! She is a private lawyer Besides, Xiaojie has nothing to want in his daily life, so he is interested in changing the system, especially the bumblebee. His mind turned. Li Xiaoyue gritted his teeth, turned around and walked towards Ye Chenyu "I''ll double it and you''ll give it to me." Li Xiaoyue said. Ye Chenyu shook his head with an evil smile. I don''t need money, and... It''s hard for a thousand gold to buy a good visual sense. Li Xiaoyue really wants to punch out Ye Chenyu''s smile. Unfortunately, she has a request at the moment. "Mr. Ye..." Li Xiaoyue smiled hard. "Well, I just promised a child to send him this bumblebee. Based on the credit problem, I think it''s best not to break an appointment with the children." Ye Chenyu nodded, obviously agreeing with Li Xiaoyue''s words. Li Xiaoyue continued to endure. Although the smile at the corners of his mouth was very stiff, he was at least laughing, "you see, if you can, can you give up your love?" "No!" Ye Chenyu answered very simply. "Why?" Li Xiaoyue immediately smiled and stared, "don''t you agree with me?" Ye Chenyu said, "no, why..." he laughed and joked, "you also said, it''s love... Since it''s love, how to cut?!" "..." Li Xiaoyue twitched at the corners of his mouth. Ye Chenyu shrugged. Under Li Xiaoyue''s glare, he went to the boss. "Please pack it for me. In addition, I want the Optimus Prime!" Li Xiaoyue was still gnashing his teeth in place and feigning Ye Chenyu. When he brushed the card, he saw the boss come and take away the new Optimus Prime, and his eyes widened "Boss, wait!" Li Xiaoyue screamed. The boss looked at Li Xiaoyue with doubts on his face. "I want this, I want this!" Li Xiaoyue said hurriedly. The bumblebee is gone. At least we need an Optimus Prime?! Otherwise, looking back, little Jie thinks that her second mother is useless. She doesn''t have to be despised like Mo Mo every day No, no, no, it''s depressing to think about that. "Sorry..." the boss apologized again. "This gentleman wants this one, too, and has paid." "..." Li Xiaoyue pulled at the corners of her mouth and then looked at Ye Chenyu, "Ye Chenyu, are you born against me?" Ye Chenyu shrugged and said... Who told you not to start first?! "Oh, by the way..." Ye Chenyu smiled and kindly reminded, "this Optimus Prime is also the last one." "..." Li Xiaoyue''s anger has reached an unprecedented rhythm, especially when he saw Ye Chenyu''s sad smile. "Sir, your hand!" The boss wrapped up the office and handed it to Ye Chenyu in a paper bag. Then he looked at Li Xiaoyue and said, "excuse me, miss, do you need it? If not, I''ll close the door." Ye Chenyu looked at Li Xiaoyue''s angry look and said, "tut Tut," why is it so angry just after a new environment? Well, it seems... I should ask Shaochen to prepare something light for you tomorrow morning. " "Ye Chenyu, you''ve had enough!" Li Xiaoyue roared wildly. The boss looked at Li Xiaoyue strangely because he didn''t understand Chinese Li Xiaoyue looked embarrassed, smiled apologetically with his boss, and asked again, "is there no new change?" The boss smiled and shook his head. "All the products are limited edition... Well, there should be no new models in the near future." He paused. "Since you know this gentleman, why don''t you discuss with him and let one for you?" When Li Xiaoyue heard the boss say so, he became even more depressed. Ye Chenyu has gone out, and Li Xiaoyue can only leave bitterly Because both of them want to go back to the hotel, naturally, they can only go the same way. On the way, Li Xiaoyue didn''t speak because he was angry, and ye Chenyu didn''t speak either. He''ll see how long this woman can hold it. Ye Chenyu''s pace is not fast and slow. Occasionally, he will use his remaining light to brush the shadow of one staggered step on the side "Ye Chenyu..." Just as she was about to arrive at the hotel, Li Xiaoyue didn''t hold back. Ye Chenyu smiled at her, turned around and looked at her without talking, but his eyes were suspicious. Under the lantern cover of the dim yellow road, the evil smile at the corner of Ye Chenyu''s mouth suddenly became very charming But this evil smile made Li Xiaoyue feel that ye Chenyu was waiting for her to beg him. Ah, ah! Li Xiaoyue kept roaring in her heart. She really wanted to break Ye Chenyu''s smile... It was unbearable! "How can you give me one?" Li Xiaoyue retreated and asked, "if the Bumblebee can''t, what about Optimus Prime?" "Both are out of print. I''m not willing to give up either." Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. Li Xiaoyue clenched his hand I can''t bear it! "Conditions you open..." Li Xiaoyue tried to make himself smile softly and friendly, "as long as I can do it, I''ll try my best." "My offer?" Ye Chenyu confirmed the sound lightly. Li Xiaoyue gritted his teeth and nodded with a smile. Ye Chenyu''s eyes were deep, and he said, "it''s not impossible to let you have one..." he shook his handbag, "even give you a bumblebee." Li Xiaoyue is not very happy, because she clearly knows that this man will put forward the conditions that may drive her crazy Sure enough! "If you want..." Ye Chenyu smiled more and more evil, "kiss me!" "Bitch!" Li Xiaoyue jumped violently at once and kicked Ye Chenyu with one foot. Ye Chenyu didn''t hide. He just raised his hand and held Li Xiaoyue''s ankle The posture of the two people was a little strange... No, it should be said that only Li Xiaoyue''s posture was very strange. Her foot was held by Ye Chenyu. Because her other foot could not stand stably, she began to swing back and forth, "Ye Chenyu, let me go..." "Hey, didn''t your feet just want to have a close contact with my body?" Ye Chenyu said angrily, "I just finish your idea!" "Let me go..." Li Xiaoyue is going crazy. How can there be such a rogue in this world? Thinking about it, she began to struggle to take back her legs. However, she doesn''t struggle. It''s okay As soon as I struggled, I suddenly lost my balance and leaned back "Ah!" Li Xiaoyue just screamed. Ye Chenyu''s action instinctively pulled back, and Li Xiaoyue''s body inertia fell back towards him. At the right time, he quickly let go of her ankle and put one arm around her waist to prevent her from falling down again. However, because of inertia, when Li Xiaoyue''s lips and ye Chenyu''s cheeks had a close contact, both of them were frozen in place Chapter 957 Mo Shaochen walked around in white casual clothes Suddenly, he stopped and looked at the two people in front of him. I saw Ye Chenyu holding Li Xiaoyue. From his point of view, she should kiss Ye Chenyu''s cheek shyly Mo Shaochen''s eyes darkened, and then he frowned lightly. Both of them?! Mo Shaochen thought and found that he instinctively resisted such an idea Li Xiaoyue pushed Ye Chenyu away in time. Just when he wanted to scold, he saw Mo Shaochen in front of him. ''teng ''once, Li Xiaoyue''s face turned red in an instant, and even the corners of her mouth burst. Ye Chenyu felt that Li Xiaoyue was in a wrong mood. Looking back... He saw Mo Shaochen walking up. "I couldn''t sleep, so I came out for a walk..." Mo Shaochen took the lead in breaking the silence and said, "do you also take a walk?" "No!" "Yes!" Li Xiaoyue and ye Chenyu spoke at the same time. Then, one of them became more and more confused, and the other laughed more and more evil. The two people''s "Confessions" are inconsistent, which has the effect of trying to cover up. Mo Shaochen frowned slightly. He didn''t like the situation of the two people. "I just went shopping and met Ye Chenyu..." Li Xiaoyue subconsciously explained. Mo Shaochen looked at her with a shallow smile on the corners of his mouth. "Tut Tut," Ye Chenyu said suddenly and deliberately. He leaned slightly over to Li Xiaoyue, lowered his voice and asked, "what are you afraid Shaochen misunderstood? Huh?" It is said that the voice is lowered, but it can be heard by all three people "So anxious to explain..." Ye Chenyu deliberately asked, "well, do you like him?" Li Xiaoyue widened his eyes and subconsciously retorted, "I didn''t..." Mo Shaochen frowned obviously. Ye Chenyu smiled, "Oh, you don''t like him..." "You..." Li Xiaoyue knew that he was set by Ye Chenyu again. Ye Chenyu looked at Li Xiaoyue''s near collapse and madness and laughed, "I''ll make sure..." then he took out the Bumblebee, "here, you kissed me, this is... Ow..." Ye Chenyu''s words didn''t speak, but a tragic wail came. Mo Shaochen twitched at the corners of his mouth and looked at Ye Chenyu''s legs. When he looked at the strange shape, he felt his eggs hurt "You woman..." Ye Chenyu trembled with pain. "Why are you so cruel... Do you want me to have no sexual happiness in the lower part of my body?!" Li Xiaoyue was already in a hurry and completely ignored Mo Shaochen. "You asked for it!" Gnashing his teeth, Li Xiaoyue turned angrily and walked to the hotel. He even forgot to say hello to Mo Shaochen. It''s just that she took a few steps and turned back While walking, he took out the money. When he came to Ye Chenyu, he broke his leg in pain. Li Xiaoyue took the bumblebee in his hand and stuffed the money into Ye Chenyu''s shirt with two buttons "There''s a lot of tips for you! Hum..." Before leaving, I didn''t forget to despise ye Chenyu. "What is'' the most poisonous woman ''?" Ye Chenyu only slightly relieved the pain in his lower body when Li Xiaoyue turned around. Mo Shaochen didn''t leave with Li Xiaoyue. He just looked at Ye Chenyu and smiled, "no matter how soft and clever cats are, they all have sharp claws..." "See." Ye Xiaoyu looked straight at Li Chenyu. At the right time, Li Xiaoyue just turned back, looked at him and snorted coldly, then continued to walk forward and returned to the hotel. "Why are two people on the bar again?" Mo Shaochen spoke faintly. Ye Chenyu glanced at Mo Shaochen and said, "I just went to buy hands for Beichen''s son, and she happened to be there... I also want to buy hands for change." "She should also buy it for Xiaojie..." "Huh?" Ye Chenyu wondered and was obviously a little surprised. Mo Shaochen smiled. "I thought you knew..." paused. "She is Jian Mo''s best friend." "..." Ye Chenyu''s eyes were deep and surprised. On weekdays, he didn''t have much contact with Beichen because of his identity. He knew that his wife was Jian mo. it was all after he made it public Unexpectedly, and Li Xiaoyue are also involved in this relationship. Thinking, ye Chenyu looked in the direction of the hotel, but where is Li Xiaoyue?! "Just one?" Mo Shaochen''s puzzled voice came. "This time it''s a limited edition, less..." Ye Chenyu explained. "There''s only one Bumblebee left. I bought it. Then if she didn''t let it, I bought the last Optimus Prime by the way." Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes and smiled, "you bought them all, can she not be angry?" He raised his eyes, "I''m going to give the Bumblebee to her and deliberately provoke her..." Ye Chenyu escaped the money from his shirt and deliberately said, "otherwise, how can there be a tip?" "You are a public servant of the people. It''s like the government wants you to work for nothing. You don''t have a salary." Mo Shaochen also joked. "Money, everyone loves it, how can there be less?" Ye Chenyu and Mo Shaochen also went to the hotel together, "but I didn''t expect this woman to be cruel and merciless." Mo Shaochen glanced at Ye Chenyu. In his slightly deep line of sight, people couldn''t see his emotions. He seems to be wondering something, and he seems to be resisting something... Or there is a trace of worry that he doesn''t even know. ¡­¡­ Mo palace. The morning sun was soft and spread on the sea like fine gold. Recently, star gets up very early, so that the whole Mo palace gets up early. It''s very simple. The nurse and servant should prepare in advance, and the cook should prepare star''s nutritious meal in advance. Xi Cheng has the same eyes as pandas. He says he is very hard and can''t wake up every morning However, because star''s body has not fully recovered, and he is afraid that the previous drugs will have some rejection on his body, he basically gets up every day to check star''s body before he is very sure. "Little ancestor, I must have stepped on dog shit in my last life and will serve you in this life..." Xi Cheng complained while taking the inspection instrument. "Uncle... Uncle..." star sat on the bed, clapped his small hand and shouted with a grin towards Xi Cheng. "..." Xi Cheng stopped and looked at star. Star immediately giggled, "Uncle... Uncle... Uncle..." "Shit..." Xi Cheng scolded softly, "no wonder Qin Shao likes you... It''s not bad to be shouted by you!" Then he rubbed forward again, "come on, shout more..." "Cluck... Uncle... Uncle..." Xi Cheng was intoxicated, "you call Qin Shao Shi and call me uncle... Ha ha, I saved my life. Obviously, I want to be promoted by Qin Shao in your heart... Ha ha!" Xi Cheng was so happy that he didn''t feel the strange atmosphere in the house. "Stone..." star suddenly shouted. Then, he climbed out of bed and turned his head and ran to Shi Shaoqin, "stone... Kiss!" Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes took back from Xi Cheng with a trace of cold. He bent over and picked up star. His sight and facial lines became extremely soft, and then kissed star on his face. Star immediately smiled and began to jump on Shi Shaoqin''s arm, and kissed him on the face... Of course, kissing is actually a hard rub. "Will you call uncle?" Shi Shaoqin looked at star and asked. The voice was soft and could exude honey. However, when he looked slightly at Xi Cheng, he was as sharp as two sharp blades Chapter 958 Star felt himself praised and his laughter became clearer and clearer. However, he was happy. Some people felt like they were on pins and needles and stood up by the bed "Well... Qin Shao, breakfast should be ready," Xi Cheng said with a hard head and secretly praying, "or... Have breakfast first?" Shi Shaoqin coldly raised his eyebrows and didn''t say anything. He just looked across Xi Cheng with cold eyes and turned outside with star in his arms. Xi Cheng secretly grinned and his scalp was numb. If it weren''t for star''s presence, he felt that he would be scolded directly by the coldness of Qin Shao. Hey, the difference between people is so big?! Chou Chou Chou said to star that the gentleness is the same as water... But to them, that is ice! Shi Shaoqin walks to the restaurant with star. Recently, the little guy has become a little lazy and doesn''t like walking. As long as Shi Shaoqin is in front of him, he is in a state of hugging. Of course, his dependence is full of joy for Shi Shaoqin. "At the end of the month, I will leave the Mo palace..." Shi Shaoqin did not leave his hands and made breakfast for star himself. The movement under Shi Jue Chi''s hand stopped and raised her eyes slightly, "with star?" "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered faintly, "he can''t live without me now." Shi juechi looked at the happy star and was slightly silent. Shaoqin doesn''t think he is narcissistic or overbearing. During this time, he did observe that star''s feelings for Shaoqin are different from others. For example, Shaoqin will give whatever star wants. And Shaoqin gave it to him, he will be very happy Well, it''s embodied in eating. He eats whatever Shaoqin gives him. But others gave him. The little guy often ate a few bites proudly, and the rest was either played or pulled to the ground. "Yes... Yes..." star suddenly pointed to the fruit brought by the servant. Shi Shaoqin motioned the servant to bring the fruit. When he saw star, he planed a kiwi fruit. Star''s eyes were full of strange laughter. Is it mother child nature again? As if Star also likes kiwi fruit. Meanwhile, Helsinki, Finland. Jane Mo lies on the bed and looks at the reader''s message below her love story with Gu Beichen. She can''t stop the power of famine in her body. "Hahaha..." Jian Mo turned over and saw Gu Beichen come in from the outside. She tilted her head and said, "readers have said that you can lose your wife in order to propose marriage. You really can''t die... Ha ha..." Gu beichenjun had some helplessness on his face. Thinking about what he had to do at the beginning, he divorced first and then proposed. Then he wasted more than four years and lost the chance of Xiaojie''s birth and growth. "Get up and drink..." Gu Beichen thought and saw that Jane Mo had grabbed the strange juice he had just asked for from the hotel. Jane Mo was obedient, but she didn''t sit up completely. She just lay back in Gu Beichen''s arms, drinking juice and laughing and saying, "look at the comments, everyone asked the female owner to marry the second man... Hey, what a good man, who can play the piano and be gentle." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "no matter how good it is..." "Huh?" Jian Mo slightly looked up at Gu Beichen with a gloomy face. "You have to like it." Gu Beichen said, with a smile on his mouth, "I''ve been secretly in love with me for so long in marriage... Well, women are not always persistent emotionally?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth and couldn''t stand it, but she said happily, "well, I like your narcissistic appearance." Gu Beichen bowed his head and kissed Jian Mo on his forehead. Jane Mo continued to comment and began to run the train with her mouth full Gu Beichen listened and said something from time to time, basically correcting her comments about him. The slender finger was tapping on the notebook keyboard. Jane Mo thought he was checking the information. After she drank the juice and put down the glass, she found that Gu Beichen also registered a name and replied to the message at the bottom of the book. Mr. G: love is inadvertently hidden in the heart. When it takes root and sprouts, if you want to pull it out again, it will bring out all flesh and blood. Now that the woman has fallen in love with the man, the fireworks, on and under the bridge, is the distance... But he also showed it to her. Love is often like this. No matter what I do for you, you will feel... No matter what form. Soon, Mr. G''s reply was praised by many people. Of course, there are many people who support Man 2 and start attacking him Gu Beichen''s face is not very good. Because although the person who likes it thinks his message is very right, he will still add a sentence "the man is making his own mistakes". And those who support Man 2, let alone those who fall on one side, scold the man and say that he is hypocritical by the way. "Hahaha..." Jian Mo''s hearty laughter filled the room. Finally, he looked at President Gu''s dark face and smiled with tears. Gu Beichen put his notebook next to him. Mo Tong looked at Jian Mo and smiled At first, he was very angry that those readers didn''t support him and didn''t love him. But when I saw Jane Mo laughing so happily, I suddenly felt... Years are good. No matter what was good or bad in the past, when you look back later, you can smile calmly. That''s the most precious memory. "Hey, Mr. Gu, don''t look at me like this..." Jane Mo said, and began to step back a few times. When she felt a safe distance, she said, "is your fire a little too inexplicable?" I don''t care about you, but I don''t care about you "..." Jane was sweating, "I didn''t tease you." "Your whole body is clearly shaking at me..." Gu Beichen''s eyes are already angry. "..." Jane Mo opened her mouth slightly and immediately retorted, "who is still when laughing? You are unreasonable..." "Well, I''m just unreasonable... In fact, I''m not full!" Gu Beichen said that he had immediately turned into a hungry wolf and pounced on the food perfectly. Jian Mo thinks that President Gu''s animal desire is more fierce than that of the previous two years. It is estimated that it is because there are too many events and too many bullets stored during the period. Therefore, it needs to be launched continuously. But Gu always said: men are hungry wolves in their thirties. They don''t have enough to eat. It has nothing to do with abstinence before! "..." Jane Mo was speechless immediately. What else could she say? Anyway, the ending is that she always eats her in a variety of ways Jane Mo suddenly thought that Gu Beichen worked so hard. If she hadn''t been unable to get pregnant temporarily, she felt that he was trying to make people The night was long and seemed short. The beauty of one room seems unable to vent each other''s feelings. Jane Mo suddenly felt that the time passed so slowly that she felt that her body recovered too slowly Chapter 959 Time, while Gu Beichen was traveling with Jian Mo, while Xiao Jing was dealing with emperor affairs day and night, looking for the woman with the false name of "Wang Cuihua", Mo Shaochen led the lawyer team to prepare for the second court session In the twinkling of an eye, more than half a month has passed. Britain has entered summer, and the scorching sun exudes its extreme temperature, as if to roast people. In the temporary office area of the hotel, the air conditioning is the appropriate temperature. The whole case is particularly unfavorable to his own party, including the existing evidence. Even Mo Shaochen feels that there is little chance of winning if he wants to pull back the situation in this one. "Let''s have a rest..." Mo Shaochen''s eyes dropped slightly, and his eyes still fell on the file. "One hour later, continue." Li Xiaoyue''s face was also very dignified. Everyone felt depressed in the whole conference room. This case is not about individuals, but also involves international public opinion... The president''s attention has put great pressure on everyone. "Chu ran..." "Don''t argue!" Chu ran answered quickly. Mo Shaochen smiled softly, "nervous?" "..." Chu ran subconsciously shook her head, but then nodded in embarrassment. "Just do your best..." Mo Shaochen said faintly, "go and buy some afternoon tea for everyone." "Good!" Chu ran hurriedly answered, while another assistant volunteered to go together. "Well, everyone dispersed. Have a rest and wake up..." Mo Shaochen''s voice has always been very calm. His mood made everyone nervous and obviously relaxed a lot. The existence of a figure like a great God, coupled with his ease, will reassure the people around him more often than many words. Li Xiaoyue didn''t leave, but after everyone left, he looked at Mo Shaochen and asked, "elder martial brother, do you think this evidence basically doesn''t work?" "Well..." Mo Shaochen didn''t hide. After all, Li Xiaoyue is a person who has fought a long battle and paid high attention to the lawsuit. "Worried?" Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue softly. Li Xiaoyue laughed and shook his head, "do your best..." Mo Shaochen listened and smiled. "You have to learn and use it flexibly." Immediately, the two looked at each other and smiled easily Chu ran bought coffee and pastries very quickly, which surprised Mo Shaochen obviously. "Officer ye, did the people over there buy it by the way?" Mo Shaochen asked casually. "This is what officer Ye bought..." Chu ran grinned and winked at Li Xiaoyue. "Sister Yue, this is for you alone... Officer ye said that you gave too much tip last time, so..." she looked at the pastry box meaningfully. "..." Li Xiaoyue twitched at the corners of his mouth, and his face was covered with a layer of haze, "is he finished yet Chu ran left her mouth and winked at Li Xiaoyue vaguely. "I see it, it''s estimated that it''s not over..." she said. Yu Guang also glanced at Mo Shaochen, and the bottom of her eyes was completely excited. It''s like watching the excitement, not afraid of big things. "Sister Yue, don''t argue, I''ll go out first..." Chu ran said and walked happily to the meeting room. When he came to the door, he also picked the door and said to Li Xiaoyue, "sister Yue, I was curious at that time and secretly looked... Our cakes are of normal specifications. Why is yours in the shape of a peach heart?" "..." Li Xiaoyue continued speechless. Chu ran, with a naughty smile, closes the glass door and leaves The atmosphere in the meeting room was a little strange and awkward. "Is Chenyu chasing you?" Mo Shaochen opened the coffee and pushed it in front of Li Xiaoyue to break the silence. "Chasing me?" Li Xiaoyue immediately rolled his eyes. "Elder martial brother, have you ever seen a man chasing a woman like this?" She was so angry that she clenched her teeth. "If it''s really chasing me, how many immoral things have I done in my last life?!" Mo Shaochen frowned slightly. In the depths of his eyes, there was a touch of light emotion... A relieved smile. "So hate him?" Mo Shaochen''s tone was obviously relaxed. Li Xiaoyue opens the cake box. Where is the shape of a peach heart in it... Isn''t it an ordinary square?! Suddenly, Li Xiaoyue knew that she was fooled by Chu ran. "It''s good to have a tense work and occasionally someone to adjust the atmosphere..." Mo Shaochen looked at the cake and said with a smile, "Chu Ran is young and energetic." When Mo Shaochen said this, he didn''t find it. He was the first time Li Xiaoyue opened it, and his sight had fallen on the cake inside. "How did I choose such an assistant?" Li Xiaoyue was a little depressed, "I guess Mo Mo and I must have some attributes in our bodies... She worked late and I got Chu ran... Both of them are nervous and are not afraid of big things." Mo Shaochen''s smile deepened. Looking at Li Xiaoyue''s charming and angry appearance, his eyes gradually became deeper and deeper. After a short break, time passes in the meeting We even spent dinner in pizza and coffee while eating and discussing. "Break up the meeting..." Mo Shaochen said calmly after finishing the final case. "Tomorrow is the second game. Let''s have a good rest in the evening." "Mo Bian, let''s go up first..." Everyone said hello and went upstairs one after another. "Do you want to have a snack?" Asked Mo Shaochen. "OK..." Li Xiaoyue answered and gave Chu ran the information in his hand. Chu ran immediately winked at Li Xiaoyue, greeted Mo Shaochen and left the conference room She didn''t go out for a minute, but a text message came from Li Xiaoyue''s cell phone. Chu ran: sister Yue, the eye medicine I gave Mo Yan this afternoon seems to be very effective... Look, I asked you to have supper! Tut Tut, I think I should go to fan the flames for officer Ye Da Li Xiaoyue closed his eyes and wanted to chase him out and beat the assistant who was not afraid of big things. "What''s the matter?" Mo Shaochen felt that Li Xiaoyue''s breath was wrong and asked suspiciously. "It''s all right..." Li Xiaoyue pulled the corners of his mouth, "senior brother, let''s go!" Mo Shaochen nodded and walked to the meeting room with Li Xiaoyue While walking, Li Xiaoyue sent a text message to Chu ran: Chu ran, I warn you, if you don''t concentrate on the case, I don''t mind letting you return home. After typing, Li Xiaoyue didn''t click the send button yet. Suddenly she felt something wrong with her breath and raised her eyes. I saw that ye Chenyu was talking to Chu ran in front. Seeing her and Mo Shaochen coming out, I looked over "There''s a good restaurant nearby. I''m going to... Do you want to have a snack together?" Ye Chenyu looked at the two people and asked. Finally, his eyes fell on Li Xiaoyue. Chapter 960 "..." Li Xiaoyue immediately looked at Chu ran. Chu ran hurriedly shakes her head behind Ye Chenyu... Indicating that she is not herself. She just sent a short message to tease sister Yue. She didn''t find officer ye She just thinks that the court will be held for the second time tomorrow. Everyone is so nervous. Let''s adjust it a little. This is really a misunderstanding, a beautiful misunderstanding! Chu Ran''s face shriveled under Li Xiaoyue''s wide eyes. "OK." Mo Shaochen answered and looked at Chu ran. "Will Chu ran go with you?" "No, no, no..." Chu ran resisted what to do with the strange trio from her heart. "I''m going to go back and look at the case studied today. I''m afraid that the data will be poorly prepared tomorrow." She looked at Li Xiaoyue, "sister Yue, I''ll go up first." Without waiting for everyone to say anything, she hurriedly turned and walked to the elevator Mo Shaochen smiled helplessly, glanced at Li Xiaoyue, who was angry, and signaled everyone to go. Along the way, Mo Shaochen chatted with Ye Chenyu. Li Xiaoyue thought it was strange to be around two men at the moment. Ye Chenyu said that the restaurant is an authentic British restaurant with a good environment. "Sit over there..." Li Xiaoyue saw a place by the window and walked over there. "Go over there!" Ye Chenyu spoke, but he said the corner position near the wall, and his vision was particularly bad. Li Xiaoyue frowned. "You like it there. You can go alone. I''ll go to the window with my senior brother..." she chuckled, but smiled falsely. "Just right, I don''t want to have dinner with you at the same table." Mo Shaochen had a headache. He looked at Ye Chenyu, but saw him shake his head and show no compromise. Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue again. She directly smiled and said, "if it''s inconvenient for me, elder martial brother, I''ll just sit alone..." she raised her eyebrows and said with indifference, "it''s all right. I''ve been eating alone for more than a year and I''ve been listening... Ah..." Li Xiaoyue didn''t speak, so ye Chenyu suddenly grabbed his wrist and walked to the position he said without waiting for her reaction. "Let go..." Li Xiaoyue said in a low voice. Because in public, she is not good to be loud and violent. She can only break free slightly and warn Ye Chenyu with her eyes. Mo Shaochen frowned slightly and followed him. When he reached the position that ye Chenyu said, he directly pressed Li Xiaoyue to sit on the seat, and then sat down on one side "In order to prevent you from leaving and affecting Shaochen and me, we can only sit together reluctantly." Ye Chenyu looked as if he had made a great sacrifice. "Who wants to sit with you?" Li Xiaoyue was angry. "You like sitting here so much. Why don''t you sit?" Mo Shaochen sat down opposite Li Xiaoyue, looked at the appearance of Li Xiaoyue''s death, and gently said, "in fact, it''s better to sit in a row..." Li Xiaoyue frowned and looked at Mo Shaochen. "Because sitting opposite, it''s disgusting to look at each other..." Mo Shaochen''s voice showed a little smile. "Don''t you have less appetite?" Then he looked at Ye Chenyu and teased the two people at the same time. Li Xiaoyue immediately raised his eyebrows and smiled, "elder martial brother is right!" "Yes?" Ye Chenyu put his arm lazily on the armrest of the chair and looked at Li Xiaoyue and Mo Shaochen sitting opposite. "So, you two will have more appetite if you sit opposite?" Mo Shaochen looked a little deeper and saw that Li Xiaoyue looked sideways at Ye Chenyu. He didn''t find that his turning body completely covered her vision. "Of course..." Li Xiaoyue raised her eyebrows. "I have more appetite when I sit face to face with my senior brother than when I sit face to face with you." "Oh..." Ye Chenyu looked clear. "Then you said you didn''t like Shaochen? I think it''s obvious..." "..." Li Xiaoyue twitched at the corners of his mouth, then closed his eyes and opened them after taking a deep breath. "I don''t care about you in general." Then she sat upright, took the card and ordered a meal. She didn''t dare to see Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen looked at Ye Chenyu, who was joking with evil spirits from beginning to end, with deep eyes, and ordered a set meal. "Just like him..." Ye Chenyu didn''t look at the meal card. "A meal." The waiter answered and went to prepare. Suddenly, the atmosphere was a little strange. Li Xiaoyue didn''t find anything wrong because she was angry, and didn''t participate in the topic of Ye Chenyu and Mo Shaochen Anyway, she saw that she was born to repel Ye Chenyu. Most of Mo Shaochen''s topics are also small talk. However, after a pair of eyes occasionally deviate slightly, they will look at Ye Chenyu. But he didn''t feel anything wrong from ye Chenyu. Even, from beginning to end, he was indifferent to evil spirits, and occasionally became angry with Li Xiaoyue. Is he thinking too much?! Mo Shaochen drooped his eyes and ate gracefully. His mind began to scratch the structure of the whole restaurant The window has the best view, of course, and it is also the place where it is easiest to expose itself. Although this corner is not the worst position for the whole restaurant, while his back is against the window, the width and height of his back just block his body. The position of Xiao Yue was blocked by Chenyu inadvertently. It can be said that... They were completely hidden in the dark. The profession of lawyer is very good, but criminal defense has a certain risk factor to some extent. In addition, this transnational case does not involve the private level, and problems will emerge one after another in the follow-up, involving public opinion Who is guilty or not seems not to be the concern of the people above, but who can win the final lawsuit?! Mo Shaochen is different from ye Chenyu in eating. He is always slow and elegant, which is related to his good education since childhood. Li Xiaoyue looked sideways at the morning leaf, and make complaints about it. Fortunately, it''s a high-end restaurant. Ye Chenyu probably has some scruples. Otherwise, she estimates that this guy can directly destroy the clouds. Hum, sure enough, it''s not the same level as senior brother! Look how elegant and gentleman senior brother is "You keep sneaking at me like this..." Ye Chenyu stuffed food in his mouth and looked at Li Xiaoyue. At the same time, he picked up his cup and drank water. "I doubt whether you are secretly in love with me." "..." Li Xiaoyue felt a meal in his head, and then the food stuck in his throat, "cough... Cough... Cough..." "Can''t you stop bullying her?" Mo Shaochen sighed and handed a napkin to Li Xiaoyue. Looking at her, her whole face turned red because she had to cough again. Sight, uncontrollable depth Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue in this way until ye Chenyu glanced at him with a funny light and looked at him with meaningful examination. "I didn''t bully her..." Ye Chenyu stuffed food into his mouth. "Most of them are her own bullying me, self erosion!" "Ye Chenyu, you don''t speak, no one thinks you are mute..." Li Xiaoyue gritted his teeth and clutched his napkin angrily. Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows and shrugged casually. After making a move to hold his mouth, he leaned forward and said in a voice that only two people could hear: "I''m helping you... You didn''t see it. Shaochen was stunned to see your blushing just now." Chapter 961 Li Xiaoyue''s body suddenly stiffened and subconsciously looked at Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen slightly twisted his eyebrows, looked at Ye Chenyu suspiciously, and looked at Li Xiaoyue with questioning eyes. Li Xiaoyue''s uncontrollable face turned red, and even her breathing became short because of Ye Chenyu''s words. Ye Chenyu got up slowly and looked at Li Xiaoyue at a loss. His eyes were deep. At the same time, a smile that people couldn''t understand overflowed from the corners of his mouth Mo Shaochen''s eyebrows are a little tight. He is not a curious person. However, at this moment, he is very curious. What did ye Chenyu say to Li Xiaoyue to make her blush while putting away her sharp thorn. Ye Chenyu continued to eat just like those who had nothing to do. The atmosphere became strange for a time, but the three people had three thoughts, and no one spoke. They were just eating silently. "Let''s go..." Mo Shaochen broke the strange atmosphere. After they left the restaurant, they went to the hotel Mo Shaochen subconsciously cooperated with Ye Chenyu''s way of walking. Li Xiaoyue didn''t find anything wrong. Talking with Mo Shaochen about some points of the case, the three returned to the hotel. After watching Li Xiaoyue enter the hotel room, Mo Shaochen shouted to Ye Chenyu, who was preparing to return to his room, "Chenyu..." "Huh?" "Go to my room for a drink?" Ye Chenyu looked at the time and shrugged, "if you''re not tired..." Mo Shaochen shook his head slightly, then opened the door of his room, went in and went to get two goblets and a bottle of red wine. "So busy, do you still have time to wash wine?" Ye Chenyu looked at the wine and said, "the year is good." "When I came, I brought two bottles from Beichen wine cellar..." Mo Shaochen took the wine opener, opened the wine and poured it out to each other. "Is there danger outside?" "Huh?" Ye Chenyu shook his wine glass and looked at the red wine glass hanging. He lay lazily on the sofa, and his feet were casually on the tea table. Mo Shaochen sat down opposite. "Someone wants to move me and Xiao Yue?" He pointed it out directly. "Smell is sensitive..." Ye Chenyu raised his glass, motioned, drank, felt the mellow fragrance across the taste buds, and enjoyed his face. "Every time I''m greedy, my favorite is to go to blues." He looked at Mo Shaochen, "we can''t afford to drink this cup for a month..." Mo Shaochen looked at Ye Chenyu and didn''t interrupt him, although he didn''t know how he turned to red wine. "At first I didn''t understand this, but later I drank too much wine from Beichen..." Ye Chenyu continued, "I can also pretend to be a man of high society." Mo Shaochen raised his hand, took a sip of red wine and continued to listen. "Later, there was a mission. There was a black boss who loved red wine..." Ye Chenyu chuckled. "I came to him. Finally, I succeeded in catching him..." "What do you want to frown, Shaochen?" "Shaochen, this is my task. If you don''t participate, how can I do..." Ye Chenyu raised his eyes and looked at Mo Shaochen with a sharp look. "But I don''t want you to protect us with your safety!" Mo Shaochen frowned. "It''s dangerous. You can directly say that we don''t have to go out for a late night snack. The hotel can also." "I stopped and said there might be hidden dangers outside..." Ye Chenyu smiled. "How do you fight this lawsuit tomorrow?" He asked, "even if you''re used to it, what about her?" Mo Shaochen was speechless. Indeed, he has experienced too many things like this and is used to it, but Xiaoyue is different... It may affect her performance tomorrow for these reasons. "Tomorrow''s game is very important, isn''t it?" Ye Chenyu took another sip of red wine with a slight smile, as if danger was not danger. "But if you get hurt, she''s probably more stressed." Mo Shaochen told the truth. Ye Chenyu shook his head, "the other party''s goal is now your two main debaters. It''s best to have a chance to do it. If there is no chance, there will be no complications..." "Are you so sure?" Mo Shaochen frowned and asked. Ye Chenyu smiled. "I was sent because I have rich experience in this field..." he raised his glass again, motioned, and then poured the wine in the cup into his mouth. Put down your legs, sit up straight, put the wine cup on the tea table, get up and finish it at one go "All right, lawyer Mo," Ye Chenyu looked at Mo Shaochen playfully, "don''t worry about my way of doing things. I''d better find a way to end this case as soon as possible..." With that, he waved his hand and walked to the door, muttering. "I have no experience this time. If I have the opportunity to go abroad next time, I should bring more instant noodles and pickled mustard... The food here is really not delicious." Mo Shaochen looked at Ye Chenyu''s figure disappearing at the door and was cut off by the closed door before his sight was taken back. Drink a clean red wine cup and put it quietly on the tea table. Mo Shaochen suddenly couldn''t understand Ye Chenyu. He is evil and charming. According to the people above, he doesn''t follow the rules From today''s point of view, why not just follow the rules? Just do whatever you want! The night was spent with people thinking and nervous. The next day, the local news gave a lot of coverage to the hearing early in the morning. After the first hearing, the whole situation became sticky "Steven, how sure are you of this trial?" The tall man stood in front of the window, the morning light shrouded him, and his golden hair burned his eyes. Stephen sighed. "Mr. Brian, the other party''s lawyer team is very strong this time. I can only promise not to lose this one." Brian listened and turned slowly. The middle-aged man''s dark green eyes were cold. He only heard him slowly say, "those two main arguments?" "Yes." Stephen replied, "that man, obviously calm, always takes advantage of loopholes when we make efforts... And that woman has the sharp mouth that lawyers need most." Brian went to the sofa, sat down, took a cigar, lit it, took a sip, and then slowly asked, "what if they disappear?" Steven felt a strange emotion at the bottom of his eyes, but he quickly converged. "As long as one of them is not here, the lawsuit will be easy to fight a lot..." after a pause, he raised his eyes and looked at Brian. "The two of them cooperate very well, and even can be called a golden combination." Brian continued to smoke his cigar without speaking. "But as far as I know, they only worked together once before..." Stephen wondered. "Although Zoe had a beautiful lawsuit in California, it''s obvious that their ability to work together can''t be underestimated." Brian flicked the ash and didn''t listen to Stephen muttering. "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." Someone pushed the door and came in, walked up to Brian and said respectfully, "Sir, I didn''t have a chance to do it last night..." he handed Brian the folder in his hand. "This is the information you want." Blaine took it, glanced around indifferently, and then slowly said, "since Mo is not easy to move, start from that woman..." Chapter 962 Old London. The Central Criminal Court is a somewhat ancient building, which is solemn and solemn. The central criminal court accepts national criminal cases, and this transnational case is also tried here Outside the media have begun various reports and speculation, and even some domestic media journalists with credibility and high-level have been waiting outside early. However, neither foreign nor domestic journalists have formally interviewed the lawyer teams of both sides. After all, before there is no result, experienced lawyers will not say anything and act that will catch the other party afterwards. Lawyer''s lounge. Mo Shaochen made a cup of coffee for Li Xiaoyue and put it in front of her. Seeing that she was still reading the information, he frowned slightly and sat down. "Xiao Yue..." "Huh?" Li Xiaoyue questioned and looked at Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen motioned for coffee. Li Xiaoyue found the coffee cup at hand and smiled awkwardly, "thank you, senior brother." "I just went to make coffee and heard a little story told by the staff of the court..." Mo Shaochen said with a smile. "I think it''s very interesting. I''ll share it with you." Li Xiaoyue nodded with an eyebrow and drank a cup of coffee to relieve her nervous tension. "There was a man who ventured alone in the forest and was suddenly surrounded by cannibals..." Mo Shaochen''s voice was soft and soft, and it was like a gentle breeze blowing his face, which made people feel particularly comfortable. "He looked timidly at the cannibals who surrounded him and thought, I''m dead..." Mo Shaochen''s voice was full of yin and Yang, which was very vivid. "So he shouted to the sky: God, help me!" Li Xiaoyue pulled down the corners of his mouth. Because of the nature of lawyers, he subconsciously wanted to refute unfounded things However, he was seen through by Mo Shaochen and self-control with his eyes. Li Xiaoyue smiled and motioned Mo Shaochen to continue. "Just after the man shouted, a light suddenly appeared in the sky..." Mo Shaochen said with a serious face. "Then, a voice came down... Said: you don''t have to die yet. Now you pick up a big stone and smash the leader to death." Li Xiaoyue stopped drinking coffee. Subconsciously, he was brought into that situation by Mo Shaochen''s vivid and soft voice. "So the man picked up a big stone and smashed it hard at the leading chief..." Mo Shaochen said, "just right, smashed the chief to death!" Li Xiaoyue slightly widened her eyes and felt that the story was quite dramatic. "When the chief died, the cannibals were stunned and looked at each other angrily..." Mo Shaochen saw that Li Xiaoyue listened carefully and paused slightly. "What''s next?" Li Xiaoyue asked subconsciously, "is that man really saved?" Mo Shaochen smiled and looked at Li Xiaoyue as a silly girl. His eyes were as soft as water. "At this time," Mo Shaochen smiled at the corners of his mouth, "the voice in the sky came down again... Said: Well, now, you''re really dead!" "..." Li Xiaoyue was stunned at first, and then burst into laughter. Mo Shaochen''s smile deepened. Looking at Li Xiaoyue''s uncontrollable smile, the lines of his face became soft. After Li Xiaoyue smiled for a while, Mo Shaochen looked at her with deep eyes and asked, "is it easier?" Li Xiaoyue didn''t respond, so he heard Mo Shaochen say, "don''t think about the case all the time in your mind. Relax, you can do the best Li argument." Li Xiaoyue''s nose was astringent and looked at Mo Shaochen gratefully. "Is there a time when senior brother is nervous?" "Yes." "So do you?" Li Xiaoyue was surprised. "Well," Mo Shaochen nodded, "even if it''s more famous in China, it should be the one you saw." "But I read the report at that time. You played very easily..." Li Xiaoyue was a little incredible. After all, at that time, he easily manipulated the whole court, charmed thousands of girls and boys, and resolutely chose law?! Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes and smiled, "you can think I''m good at pretending..." "Er..." Li Xiaoyue didn''t know how to react. "In fact, before playing, like you, I want to eat the file directly into my head..." Mo Shaochen said faintly. "At that time, did someone tell elder martial brother a little story to relax?" Li Xiaoyue is curious. Mo Shaochen shook his head and his eyes became deep and far away At that time, Beichen changed. The whole family was shrouded in haze. What he had was just an agreement with Beichen. Each other, in their own place, strive to stand at the top This is probably the only belief he had at that time?! "It seems that I''m much happier than my senior brother..." Li Xiaoyue said easily. There was a hidden emotion in the bottom of his eyes. Mo Shaochen raised his eyes and looked at Li Xiaoyue, with a trace of teasing in his calm voice, "yes, at least... You have me!" With a trace of ambiguous words, Li Xiaoyue only felt that his heart was suddenly shocked She hurriedly raised her coffee cup and drank it, trying to cover up her emotions. The court session starts at 2 p.m. on time. From the beginning, the lawyers of both sides were steady and steady, to the later questions and rebuttals of both parties, and the lower lip gunfight It can be said that even laymen can see the fierce competition. Ye Chenyu sat at the best angle. Although he clearly knew that there would be no accident in the court, he needed to control all possible emergencies. But even under such a high concentration, his eyes occasionally fall on Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue. After reading their last debate, this time, it was still so wonderful that he felt that the two were quite matched Well, it''s a good match! A self mockery crossed his eyes, but ye Chenyu converged quickly. "Brother Chen," Qiao Rui leaned slightly to Ye Chenyu''s side and whispered, "do you think there is much hope for results this time?" "How do I know?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows and said, "I haven''t graduated from the police school, and I don''t even know the rules!" "..." Qiao Rui blushed immediately. "Brother Chen, what did you say?" "It''s over!" Ye Chenyu said foolishly, "otherwise, I can''t kill you..." "..." Qiao Rui twitched at the corners of his mouth, sat upright, and began to mutter, "I''ve never seen such a stingy man... I choked with you at the beginning. Why do you always take it out to tease people?" Ye Chenyu''s eyes were deep and turned his head. While his eyes were sharp and quickly across a place, he leaned over to Qiao Rui''s ear, "you''re five o''clock, black suit, the one with beard, and scattered your heels." Qiao Rui didn''t see it, but glanced sideways at Ye Chenyu. Yu Guang crossed the position, "OK, OK, I know..." he looked like he was taught, "I won''t be blind next time!" "Well," the evil smile on the corner of Ye Chenyu''s mouth deepened, "children can be taught." Chapter 963 The two chatted and solved the problem. At the same time, the lawyers of both sides fell into a more and more adhesive state, which almost made the whole court heavy. "If the lawyers of both parties are unable to produce more favorable evidence for this court session..." the judge said in due time, "the court trial will be postponed, and it is tentatively scheduled to hold another court session in five days..." Li Xiaoyue''s mouth was tightly clenched and his hand was tightly clenched under the lawyer''s robe. Stephen timely projected a provocative look, and the corners of his mouth had a contemptuous smile. Li Xiaoyue bared his teeth and clenched his hands more and more tightly. Suddenly A warm palm wrapped her tightly clenched hand and squeezed it slightly. Li Xiaoyue subconsciously looked at Mo Shaochen and gave her a look of approval. The warmth in his heart came from the wrapped hand, and Li Xiaoyue bit his lower lip. Both parties were taken down by the police. Li Xiaoyue took a deep breath and nodded slightly with Mo Shaochen to indicate that he was all right. Mo Shaochen smiled and released his hand. ¡°Court£¡¡± Everyone stood up and waited for the judge to leave before they began to pack up and prepare to leave. The outside media saw someone coming out and frantically besieged, but the lawyers of both sides were the same as when they came, and no one said a word. Finally, those media were blocked by security guards and police. "I''ll argue with the two leaders..." after ye Chenyu explained to the team members, he looked at Chu ran, "you do the car behind." Chu ran looked at Li Xiaoyue and saw that she was in an unstable mood, so she didn''t ask "Oh" and turned to the car behind her. The driver was from the accompanying protection group. Mo Shaochen pulled Li Xiaoyue into the back seat because he knew there might be danger last night Ye Chenyu gestured to Qiao Rui and turned to the co pilot. Li Xiao kept looking out of the window. "You have done well..." Mo Shaochen broke the silence. Li Xiaoyue took back his sight, "I have a chance to end this lawsuit, but..." "Steven is an old lawyer," Mo Shaochen said objectively. "Many people fall into his aggressive way of debate. It''s not easy for you to pull back at the last minute." Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen and suddenly smiled bitterly, "elder martial brother, you don''t have to ignore my mistake today because you comfort me." Mo Shaochen smiled and shook his head. "If I do this, it will insult your efforts in California..." From the relaxation before the court session, to the support after the presentation, to the recognition at this time... Li Xiaoyue''s nose was sour in an instant. She looked at Mo Shaochen in this way, and even forgot the environment, and her eyes turned red in an instant. Ye Chenyu looked back from the rearview mirror. He felt he was peeping. However, it is also an honest peeping Just, peeping at the end, a touch of astringency ran across the corner of the mouth. It felt a little uncomfortable. He sighed quietly, restrained his eyes and looked ahead. The evil spirit said, "I didn''t lose again. What''s the hypocrisy? Isn''t there another game?" "Shut up!" Li Xiaoyue instantly changed from a watery woman to a hedgehog and looked at Ye Chenyu in front. Ye Chenyu smiled at the corners of his mouth, raised his arms, and put his hands behind his head. "Angry from shame... Tut Tut, women are really difficult to serve." He deliberately lengthened his tone of exclamation and showed teasing. "Ah ah!" Li Xiaoyue gritted his teeth and roared, "I really can''t control the power of famine in my body. Ye Chenyu, I really want to strangle you... Why do you take the same car with me today?" "I''m the leader of the protection group. I''ll take whichever I like..." Ye Chenyu tilted his head and looked at Li Xiaoyue provocatively. "Can you control it?" Li Xiaoyue''s mouth moved and choked for a long time before he squeezed out a sentence, "how can there be such a annoying person like you?!" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows and turned his head with an evil smile. The ruffian began to whistle. The driving team members kept smiling at the corners of their mouths. Finally, Mo Shaochen also smiled at the corners of his mouth In the whole car, the final result is that Li Xiaoyue is the only one who wants to tear Ye Chenyu apart. At the hotel, Li Xiaoyue was still angry. "Still angry with Chenyu?" Mo Shaochen took a cup of hot water to Li Xiaoyue. "Angry?" Li Xiaoyue said with a stiff mouth, "I''m not so angry... That villain is also worth my anger, hum!" Mo Shaochen''s eyes were deep, and he felt a little uncomfortable in his heart. Chenyu always seems to have a way to make Xiaoyue angry, but he can think in another place... Didn''t he succeed in letting her not think about the court at that time?! "He should deliberately make you angry..." Mo Shaochen said. "It was intentional!" Mo Shaochen sat down opposite Li Xiaoyue with deep eyes. "You didn''t find it. Don''t you want to go to the court?" "..." Li Xiaoyue was stunned, and then he frowned and leaned slowly on the sofa. Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue''s silent appearance and secretly mocked himself What is he doing? Want to push Xiaoyue to Chenyu? Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes. In his eyes, there was a touch of entanglement... Even resistance. ¡­¡­ Bilbao, Spain. Jane Mo stuffed a mouthful of seafood risotto into her mouth. The expression on her face was very enjoyable "Husband..." Jane Mo shouted a little indistinctly. Gu Beichen raised his eyes and put a clam meat on the risotto. "What''s the matter?" "I think I have to lose weight when I go back to travel..." Jane Mo was dissatisfied and stuffed clam meat into her mouth with a mouthful of risotto. "You said, how is this seafood risotto so delicious?!" "You''re not fat..." Gu Beichen spoiled and said, "it''s a little meat. It''s comfortable when I hold it." Jane Mo glanced. "Mr Gu..." she drank, "according to your routine of Xiaojing in the dark pit, I think you are suspected of confusing me." "What do you say?" Gu Beichen asked with a smile. He kept moving and continued to peel shrimp for Jian mo. "Make me fat. I''m not in good shape," Jane Mo said. "Then what?! I can only wait for you." "That''s a good idea!" Gu Beichen suddenly stopped and looked serious, "I can really consider raising you fat..." Jian Mo and Gu Beichen looked at each other, and then they both laughed. In the restaurant, two people chatted while eating dinner At the same time, in a children''s theme restaurant near the Bilbao pedestrian bridge, there was a clear laughter belonging to children alone. Shi Shaoqin watched Star eat happily. In his narrow eyes, he was slowly gentle, as if he was going to amaze the years. You are as strong as your mother and have regained your life from the edge of death Star, I promised Mo''er that when she woke up within a year, I would give her a gift. Also as a gift for you Let you meet her, will you?! Shi Shaoqin thought, slightly turned his head, and his sight fell on the pedestrian bridge in front of him Today, she and Beichen should come here?! Chapter 964 In the setting sun, Gu Beichen wore a short sleeved polo shirt and a pair of white casual trousers, which cleanly faded the heavy and violent of the president of the emperor. Jane is wearing an irregular skirt with white and blue edges. Her long hair is not tied and floats freely in the breeze. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and looked at the Bilbao pedestrian bridge in front of him. Yu Guangli was full of slightly brushed faces. The hair raised by Jian Mo was elegant. Jian Mo smiled, "ah Chen, who is the designer of Bilbao pedestrian bridge?" "Test me?" Gu Beichen picked his eyebrows and saw Jian Mo''s proud face. He smiled and said, "Santiago Calatrava." "What is the most distinctive design of the pedestrian bridge?" Jane Mo continued to ask. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo and slowly opened his mouth with a smile: "this pedestrian bridge fully reflects Santiago Calatrava''s unusual use of structure..." After a pause, Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and crossed the bottom of his eyes. "You like this design, personally..." Gu Beichen raised his eyes, "because at night, the translucent glass plate on the bridge deck is illuminated from below, which makes the slowly flowing river produce a vivid reflection and create a dramatic effect." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and her eyes were full of flexibility. "What else do I like besides his Bilbao pedestrian bridge?" "Chicago spiral tower..." Gu Beichen looked sideways at Jian Mo and answered. His eyes were completely confident. Jane Mo skimmed her mouth. "How do I think I''m transparent in your eyes?!" Gu Beichen smiled, and the soft in the depths of the ink pupil was as intoxicating as the sunset. "The year you ''fell asleep''," Gu Beichen looked at the pedestrian bridge ahead and his eyes became deep. "Mo''er, I studied the works of all architects and the characteristics of each architecture you may like." Looking at Beichen, she felt sad "At that time, I was afraid every day. I was afraid that my promise to you could not be realized. I was even more afraid..." Gu Beichen stopped, leaned over, looked up at Jian Mo, and slowly said the second half of the sentence "I was more afraid that I prepared so many surprises that you couldn''t see it in the end." Jane Mo''s nose was a little sour. She stood on tiptoe and kissed Gu Beichen on the cheek. "Fortunately, everything can be completed together." "Yes!" Gu Beichen smiled and gently stroked Jian Mo''s hair. Jun''s face was soft with happiness, "accompany you through every place you want to go. Such a feeling makes me feel back to the beginning..." Gu Beichen''s smile deepened and took Jian Mo''s hand to the pedestrian bridge again "Mo''er, I never thought that I could return to the state of mind of the past." Gu Beichen said slowly, "it''s like being imprisoned for too long, finally getting rid of it, and getting the life I wanted most." Jian Mo''s head leaned on Gu Beichen''s arm, "hey hey, me too..." Two people, like lovers in love, walk from one side of the pedestrian bridge to the other side in the sunset. At night, when the lights are on, walk from the other side of the bridge to this side. Walking through the master''s pen, for a Jian Mo who is committed to architectural design, the happiest thing is to have a lover who can understand your hobbies and pursue your dreams with your lover who has a common language. There are many people on the Bilbao pedestrian bridge at night, including tourists, researchers of bridge design and local people. "I''ll buy you water?" Gu Beichen said, "come with me or wait for me here?" "I''ll wait for you here..." Jane Mo answered with a smile. Gu Beichen nodded, turned and went to the temporary kiosk not far from the bridge to buy water. Jian Mo put her arms on the railing of the bridge at will. While enjoying the night view, she studied the design of the bridge. Combined with the theoretical knowledge she usually saw, her eyes were full of admiration for the master. The night wind, blowing gently in summer, is particularly comfortable. While raising the skirt corner of Jianmo, the long hair is floating slightly. Under the light, the beauty is like a picture. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo from a distance. In the depths of his narrow eyes, there were faint emotions. Under the ink space, the complex emotions that people couldn''t understand gradually spread. Last time I saw her, she lay quietly on the hospital bed, just like the sleeping beauty in the fairy tale. Today, she is quietly looking at the front, with a faint smile at the corners of her mouth Such a smile is full of happiness, as if to infect the whole world and let everyone know that her happiness cannot be hidden. Mo''er, Beichen has you. I left star selfishly. Will you blame me?! Shi Shaoqin made a self mockery at the corner of his mouth, looked bleak, looked at Gu Beichen who went to the kiosk, and handed a sunflower in his hand to star "Give this to the aunt in the white dress, will you?" Shi Shaoqin knelt down and asked star softly. Star fanned his eyes and looked at the direction pointed by Shi Shaoqin. "Stone..." star shouted. Shi Shaoqin kissed star, "you go with Qingqing, I won''t go." Star looked back, and his mouth tooted. He didn''t know if he understood. He just grabbed the sunflower with his small hand and looked at Shi Shaoqin and shouted, "stone..." "I''ll wait for you here," Shi Shaoqin said softly. "But you can''t look back for me until you come back." Star fanned his eyes, clear fundus, obviously confused. "Qing Qing..." "Qin Shao!" The woman called Qingqing came forward. "Take star. How to do it? Do you need me to teach you?" Shi Shaoqin glanced at Qing Qing. Qingqing hurriedly said, "Qin Shao, I understand." "Hmm..." Shi Shaoqin answered, kissed star on the face again, and said soothingly, "good, go!" Paused. "Remember, kiss that aunt, huh?" Star still has a small pink mouth. Shi Shaoqin smiled and saw that the little guy didn''t want to leave him. He gently rubbed star''s head and said in a charming voice, "do it, help stone, okay?" "Stone kiss..." star hummed. Shi Shaoqin smiled. That kind of smile showed the sweetness of helplessness. He kissed star again, indicating that he also needed to kiss Star happily kissed Shi Shaoqin on the face with saliva. Then with a ''giggle'' laughter, star turned and walked to Jian mo. Qingqing hurried up and didn''t lead star. She just reminded him to slow down from time to time. Shi Shaoqin slowly got up, stood up, stood in the crowd, a pair of eyes, from beginning to end, followed star''s figure to Jian Mo''s side Jian Mo was comfortable by the wind and closed her eyes slightly. While feeling the night wind, all she had in her mind was Gu Beichen''s face. Involuntarily, Jane Mo smiled Suddenly, there was a soft touch on the lower leg. When Jane Mo opened her eyes, she looked at it subconsciously At the right time, star lifted the delicate beautiful little face that couldn''t distinguish between men and women, grinned at Jane Mo, "aunt..." Chapter 965 Jane Mo looked at star and listened to his soft, sweet and greasy voice. Her heart seemed to be injected into something in an instant. At the same time, she suddenly melted and smoked. That kind of feeling is like sweet, but it is stabbed again. "Aunt, here..." star still smiled brightly. The sunflower in his hand was obviously unstable because he held it up. Jane Mo''s nose was sour in an instant. She squatted down slowly and looked at his beautiful little face like a porcelain doll at the level of almost head to head with star. Out of control of the fundus of the eyes, a thin layer of water mist was dense, and Jane foamed her lips, forgetting her actions and reactions. "Here..." star fanned his eyelashes and stuffed the sunflower in his hand into Jian Mo''s arms without waiting for Jian Mo to pick it up. Jian Mo subconsciously catches the sunflower to fall, with red eyes. "Aunt, kiss!" Star doesn''t understand the mood fluctuation of Jian Mo, but his voice is soft and waxy. He kisses Jian Mo on his face and then giggles. Jane Mo''s heart missed a beat when star kissed her. It felt like a nerve was pulled off, making her forget to think Star finished Shi Shaoqin''s task, smiled happily, and even clapped his hands because of excitement. Jane Mo''s eyelashes trembled uncontrollably. She looked at star, smiled at the corners of her mouth and asked, "can aunt hug you?" "Hug..." star repeated with a smile. At that moment, tears almost spilled out of her eyes, "thank you..." She said and picked up star. The little guy suddenly jumped in Jian Mo''s arms with excitement. His little hand ''snapped'' and fell on Jian Mo''s face. However, Jane Mo didn''t feel any pain at all, and even felt very happy. Star''s soft palm rubbed on Jian Mo''s face and was very happy, "kiss, kiss..." Jane Mo tilted her face slightly, and star was happy and ''Baji'' on her face again. Jane Mo was very happy. She carefully kissed star. Suddenly, her heart was full of inexplicable happiness and sweetness. Star seemed to be very happy, jumping in Jane Mo''s arms. Jane Mo''s body doesn''t allow star to move so violently at all, but she is reluctant to put it down, and even more reluctant to see him happy, stop or show a little unbearable appearance. "Star..." a soft voice came. Jane Mo looked over and saw a beautiful woman coming. "Qingqing..." star shouted happily when he saw Qingqing. Qingqing came forward with a smile, "so big, let your aunt hold it?" "It doesn''t matter..." Jane moo smiled at her lower lip. "Is this child yours?" "Yes!" Qingqing answered with a smile, "the little guy is a little active. He likes his beautiful aunt best..." her eyes are completely spoiled, "I''m disturbing you." "No!" Jane Mo quickly shook her head, "he''s very good, very pleasant." Qingqing''s smile deepened when she heard the praise of her child, and then stretched out her hand to signal star. Star opened his arm and went to Qingqing''s arms Jane Mo''s arms were empty. Suddenly, her heart seemed to be evacuated. The feeling of emptiness made her very lost. "He''s so good..." Jane Mo''s eyes were full of greed for star. "Sometimes when you are naughty, it is also very abrasive." Qingqing said with a smile. Jane Mo''s mouth was a little astringent. "How old is he?" "One and a half years old..." Qingqing still answered with a smile, and then looked at star and said, "we''re looking for a stone... Come on, bye bye to your aunt!" "Aunt, bye..." star smiled and waved his small hand to Jane mo. "Bye..." Jane Mo gently moved her hands, and her nose became more and more sour. Qingqing and Jianmo nodded with a smile and wanted to leave with star in their arms. "Wait!" Jane Mo shouted hurriedly. Qingqing stopped and looked at Jian Mo with some doubts. "That..." Jane Mo bit her lower lip. "Is your family also here to travel?" "Yes." "So... Are you free tomorrow? Can I invite you to dinner?" Jian Mo said, seeing Qingqing confused, hurriedly explained, "that... I think I have a lot of fate with little baby." Her voice was nervous and even a little nervous. Qingqing didn''t expect Jian Mo to invite him like this. However, Qin Shao didn''t explain how to answer such a situation before. She could only say with some regret: "we''re leaving here early tomorrow morning..." Jane Mo''s eyes were hard to hide her loss. "If there is fate, we will meet again." Qingqing comforts Jian mo. Jane moped her lower lip and nodded lost. "Well, can I give the baby a present?" Asked Jane mo. Qingqing nodded with a smile, "of course." Jian Mo subconsciously looked at herself and found that she didn''t bring a bag with Gu Beichen. Even, she didn''t have anything special for her children. Suddenly Jane Mo''s eyes fell on the one on her wrist and wore a top natural blue agate bracelet This blue agate was polished by her and ah Chen when they went to Indonesia. Jane Mo took it down. "My husband and I made it ourselves and gave it to star." "Is this too expensive?" Qingqing frowned. "Want to..." Qingqing''s words fell down. Star had stretched his little hand and said, "want to..." Qingqing looked apologetic at the sight. Jane Mo was very happy, as if she thought that star would want her things, which made her feel the most perfect thing. "Can you kiss your aunt again?" Asked Jane mo. Star clenched the bracelet in his small hand, leaned forward, hugged Jane Mo''s neck and kissed her. At that moment, Jane felt that her nose was so sour that she couldn''t control her mood. She also kissed star, and she was completely reluctant to give up Qingqing''s eyes moved slightly. Seeing Gu Beichen approaching from there, she said quietly, "then thank you for your gift... Well, I''ll go with star. Bye!" "Goodbye..." Jane Mo looked at Star reluctantly, her eyes getting redder and redder, full of greed. Star lies on Qingqing''s shoulder, looks at Jian Mo, and gradually shrinks his smile. Holding the blue agate in his small hand, his smart eyes looked at Jian Mo, who was farther and farther away from his sight, and suddenly became silent "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen came to her, looked at the emotion stirred by Jane Mo, frowned slightly, and looked at it along her line of sight. However, there were many people on the pedestrian bridge. Coupled with the problem of light, he didn''t see the direct target. "Who were you talking to just now?" Gu Beichen asked again. "It''s also the mother and son who came to travel in China..." Jian Mo gently fanned his eyes, suddenly turned around, hugged Gu Beichen''s waist, put his face on his chest, and choked in his voice, "ah Chen, I think Xiao Yan..." Chapter 966 As soon as Jane Mo''s words fell, the tears she had just endured suddenly spilled out of her eyes. Gu Beichen slightly and invisibly frowned on the sword eyebrow. While frowning on the sword eyebrow, his line of sight looked in the direction of Jian mo before In the dim light, on the pedestrian bridge with surging people, there is no target. Gu Beichen took back his sight. He gently comforted, "Mo''er, there will be little angels with Xiaoyan''s love to come to us..." He said softly, and his low voice was soft and soothing. Gu Beichen didn''t think much. He just thought that other people''s children reminded Jian mo of Xiao Yan. "Jane''s face sucked stiffly......". Tears still hung on her face, but the corners of her mouth gradually smiled, "a little angel will come to us with Xiaoyan''s love!" Gu Beichen nodded softly and wiped away the tears on Jian Mo''s face with her slender fingers. While she left his arms, she unscrewed the water, "drink some water..." Jane Mo nodded and looked at the sunflower in her hand. Her mind was full of star''s small face and the soft, waxy, sweet and greasy voice. After drinking two mouthfuls, Jian Mo directly inserted the sunflower into the water bottle. He glanced at Gu Beichen and said, "the child gave me this. I have nothing to give, so I gave him the blue agate we polished together." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, doting. However, what two people can''t think of at the moment is that there is often a destiny The bracelet they polished and dressed with their own hands, with the love of their parents, accompanied star''s growth... Never left. "I''m a little tired. Shall we go back?" Jane murmured at the corners of her mouth. "OK..." Gu Beichen spoiled Jian Mo''s hand, took the flowers in Jian Mo''s hand and left the pedestrian bridge. The other side. Star lay quietly on Shi Shaoqin''s shoulder and played with the bracelet with his small hands. It was rare to take his attention away from him. "How was the process?" Shi Shaoqin turned and opened his mouth at the same time. As star''s close nurse, Qingqing respectfully replied: "Miss Jane didn''t find anything, but I''m afraid it''s mother and son connected. She obviously doesn''t give up under the greed of the young master." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered, "did Gu Beichen see it?" "I don''t think so..." Qingqing couldn''t guarantee it completely. "It took a little time to send the bracelet... However, I tried to go where there were many people. With the light, I couldn''t see clearly even if I saw it." Shi Shaoqin nodded and let star have a strong curiosity about the bracelet, but his long and narrow eyes were slightly deeper. Beichen has always been keen. If he is there, the possibility of seeing through will increase. He has followed them in several places, integrating the purpose of the trip of Mo''er and Beichen. In addition, when he was close to her, he knew her preferences like the back of his hand. Naturally, it would be good to wait in front of several buildings. It''s just that it''s hard to find Beichen without Mo''er on his own initiative At that time, he went to buy water. If he hadn''t delayed looking for someone, he might still have seen it. And Mo''er won''t think about anything because of emotional fluctuations What''s more, how can she think about a child who is "no longer" in the world?! "By the way, Qin Shao!" Qingqing thought of something and said, "listen to Miss Jane, this blue agate was polished by her and Mr. Gu..." "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin relaxed. Qingqing repeated Jane Mo''s original words at that time. Shi Shaoqin''s good-looking corners of his mouth showed a trace of smile. Looking at the way star focused on playing with the bracelet, his eyes were as soft as the river under the moonlight A gift made by your parents, star... Are you happy?! ¡­¡­ London. Due to three court sessions, such a situation is unfavorable to his own party, which makes Mo Shaochen rarely frown. In the temporary office area of the hotel, the whole lawyer team is busy. As the advocate, Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue have been together almost all the time these two days "Here," Mo Shaochen ordered somewhere in the file, "I will start from here to disturb each other''s feet. You should cut in and seize the first opportunity..." he raised his eyes and looked at Li Xiaoyue close at hand, "is there a problem?" Li Xiaoyue also raised her eyes. As soon as she wanted to speak, she fell into Mo Shaochen''s deep eyes. For a time, she forgot her reaction. The two were almost discussing together because of a file. They were just distracted. At this time, they looked at each other, not only Li Xiaoyue, but also Mo Shaochen. For a time, they forgot their reaction. Breathing, because too close, and entangled together It seems that each other can clearly feel each other''s breathing spread on their faces. Li Xiaoyue began to breathe heavily. Because of this distance, his heart jumped uncontrollably like a drum. Mo Shaochen also forgot his movements, and the Adam''s apple rolled up and down while Li Xiaoyue slightly pinched his lips. Ye Chenyu held two cups of freshly brewed coffee in his hand and planned to give it to the two people. From a distance, he saw their gaze and stopped. What emotion in the depths of the line of sight crossed, and the evil smile at the corners of the mouth deepened a lot. Xu felt someone watching, or they suddenly felt embarrassed under some embarrassment. Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue immediately separated. But, Li Xiaoyue ''Teng'' for a moment, his face turned red and hot. "I..." Li Xiaoyue said in a hurry, embarrassed and embarrassed. "I''ll make a cup of coffee." Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue''s charming appearance, his eyes were deep and answered. But before Li Xiaoyue got up, he saw Ye Chenyu coming. "It seems that I sent it quite at the right time..." Ye Chenyu''s voice showed a trace of ambiguous teasing, "tut Tut, this is still a good word... Men and women match, and you''re not tired of work." Then he put the coffee cup on the table, but carefully placed it far away from the file. "You two......" Ye Chenyu supported his hands on the table and asked with playfulness in his mouth. "Just discussing the case to... Communicating with ideas?" Li Xiaoyue''s face reddened as soon as he heard it. Mo Shaochen just slightly lowered his eyes and smiled at the corners of his mouth. "I''ll use my mind. It''s none of your business!" Li Xiaoyue became angry when he saw Ye Chenyu picking up his eyebrows. "It''s really none of my business..." Ye Chenyu got up and put his arms around his chest. "It''s just that I kindly came to deliver coffee. The last picture is a little spicy, so it''s none of my business!" "..." Li Xiaoyue grinned and wanted to explain. However, at the thought of the confrontation between Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue, he didn''t know how to refute it. Ye Chenyu looked at Li Xiaoyue with a smile. Originally, he wanted to tease. He saw Mo Shaochen slightly pick his chin and motioned. "Qiao Rui seems to have something to do with you?" Mo Shaochen looked at Qiao Rui over there and looked at Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu immediately restrained the evil spirit of teasing. Without saying anything, he turned and walked to Qiao Rui. "Annoying..." Li Xiaoyue angrily bared his teeth and scolded. When his eyes crossed Mo Shaochen, his face turned red again uncontrollably. Mo Shaochen''s lips moved slightly. He was trying to say something, but when he saw Li Xiaoyue''s reddish face, he was out of his mind again. Chapter 967 Ye Chenyu just looked back at the two people at the right time. His eyes were deep and converged his sight. At the same time, there was a touch of astringency at the bottom of his eyes. "Brother Chen, I lost him again." Qiao Rui is a little annoyed. "Yes." Ye Chenyu was not surprised. "It''s not easy to stay in their sphere of influence for two days." "But..." Qiao Rui gritted his teeth. "Their people are too cunning." "Just don''t have an accident." Ye Chenyu looked back at Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue, who had returned to normal and began to study the case again, and took back their sight. "The third time must be the court of final appeal. Finally, everyone came together and went back together!" Qiao Rui nodded and left the office area with Ye Chenyu. ¡­¡­ "Sir!" The tall man hung his head slightly, and the bulging muscles on his body were revealed by the black tight T-shirt. "They haven''t left the hotel these two days, so it''s not easy to start." Blaine smoked cigars, and the strong smell of cigars filled the whole room with depression. He didn''t speak, but the fiery red letter on the top of the cigar was bright and dark. The tall man didn''t get up and hung his head respectfully all the time. However, as Brian didn''t speak, he just felt that the suppressed air made him almost unable to breathe. Blaine''s deep eyes were filled with bitterness. He sat up slightly, flicked the ash on his cigar, and then slowly said, "don''t you come out... Won''t you try to get her out?" "Sir means..." the man raised his eyes. There was a trace of clarity in his blue eyes, but he was not sure. Brian suddenly snuffed out his cigar, put it on the ashtray and slowly lay back on the sofa. "Isn''t it glued? Then give them a little hope..." The man suddenly understood, "OK, I''ll do it now!" "Yes." Blaine answered, then got up and went to the window. London is full of prosperity under the metropolis, but it also has the tranquility precipitated by history. In this country with royal command and many aristocrats, it is often full of corruption under the bright appearance. If you want to rely on this, move to the Blaine family. Hehe, it''s not that easy. ¡­¡­ After a day of discussion, Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue had a preliminary opening debate plan for the third court session. Although the two men joined this time, they only cooperated in two cases. However, Xu is very professional, or two people are known, or the intention hidden by himself... It seems that the special heart is connected, and the cooperation is seamless. "Sister Yue," Chu ran lay on the bed and looked at Li Xiaoyue after taking a bath. "I think I should go back and continue to take the international card test." "HMM...." Li Xiaoyue answered, and after finishing his hair, he began to make a mask. "If you are interested in international cases, you should have an international card." "Sister Yue, is the international card easy to test?" Chu ran put her chin on the bed and looked forward without looking. "I heard it''s hard to test." "It depends on your needs..." Li Xiaoyue said. Chu ran said, "sister Yue, how did you do it? It took you less than a year to get the international card, and then you played such a case that caused a sensation in the legal circles all over the world?" Li Xiaoyue looked at herself in the mirror and put on the face of the mask. It was like wearing a mask. Why? Hehe Li Xiaoyue gradually looked at himself and became distracted. A lawyer who was put to bed by a scum man because of his self-confidence A lawyer who thought he had finally got rid of the past, but was "killed" and revoked his lawyer''s license because of the frame of the scum man''s wife Why? A promise? Or a thought Li Xiaoyue lowered his eyes, "promised a person and wanted to stand next to a person." "Who is it?" Chu ran suddenly felt refreshed. "Sister Yue," she sat up for a while, "can''t you argue Li Xiaoyue was partial, because she could not see her face with the mask, and she could not see her face. "If you think he is in accordance with the plot, then you have been a good brother." "..." Chu ran immediately glanced, "it seems that the possibility of indisputability is very small." Li Xiaoyue took back his sight, looked at himself in the mirror again and said faintly, "it''s Jane mo." People are often like this. The more you defend, the more she believes. But you admit it. Instead, she began to doubt herself Although she said a word, she actually said two people! "However, sister Yue, do you like it or not?" Chu ran lay down again, "I see how there is nothing between you and Mo Bian except the discussion and opening of the court..." Then she began to mutter, "my position is a little uncertain. I think if you really have a secret love with Shen Chu, you have no results for so many years. Does it mean there is no fate?" Chu ran left her mouth. "In fact, officer Ye is very good..." she suddenly sat up again. "Although he has a poisonous tongue, he is very careful!" Li Xiaoyue glanced at Chu ran and let her whisper there. "If Mo has no hope, sister Yue, you can really consider officer Ye''s..." "Men all over the world are dead, and I won''t consider him!" Li Xiaoyue hummed, pulled off the mask, and said, "go to bed, you have a lot of material to sort out tomorrow. I brought you here to sort out the data, not to let you gossip!" Chu ran tilted her lips and said "Oh", but it was obvious that her face was still full of gossip about Li Xiaoyue''s life. The night passed under the fatigue of the people. The next day, it suddenly drizzled in London. Such a city, under such rain, becomes a bit poetic and picturesque. Mo Shaochen went to the detention center early in the morning. He needs to know more about the situation with the party concerned. "Li Bian, look here..." the lawyer in the lawyer group hurried back from the outside with a newspaper in his hand. "I just went to the library to find this." Looking at the English reports and photos above, Li Xiaoyue was obviously surprised. "If this is true, there should be a breakthrough..." Li Xiaoyue looked at the lawyer and hurried up. "I''ll go to the place in the report." "Then I''ll find the man''s mother." "OK, split up..." Li Xiaoyue hurriedly packed up his things, with an urgent need in the bottom of his eyes. "What are you doing?" Ye Chenyu was eating a sandwich in his hand. When he saw that Li Xiaoyue was going out, he frowned slightly. "I have found new evidence, I want to contact..." Li Xiaoyue subconsciously replied. Ye Chenyu frowned slightly and saw that the protection team assigned to Li Xiaoyue was ready to follow Li Xiaoyue. He winked. "You stay and I''ll follow." As soon as Li Xiaoyue heard it, he immediately stopped, "why do you follow?" Chapter 968 Li Xiaoyue''s voice was obviously disgusted. Even on his face, there are capitalized ''unwilling''! Unfortunately "Li Bian," Ye Chenyu said solemnly, suddenly converging on his usual appearance of evil hippie, "I reiterate that I am the leader of the protection action team and the lawyer group protecting your trip. I have the absolute right to assign tasks..." After a pause, he felt a serious evil ruffian at the bottom of his eyes, "what''s your problem?" "..." Li Xiaoyue pulled at the corners of her mouth. For ye Chenyu''s disagreement, she would use this to refute her. She was also tired, "whatever you want." She put down her words and didn''t continue to say anything. She strode out "Brother Chen, come on!" The big boy of the action group winked at Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows and looked like a "must" and left the office area with Li Xiaoyue. "Tut tut..." Chu ran held the information in her hand and shook her head. "I think sister Yue will be occupied soon." Chu ran said something and looked back at Mo Shaochen''s usual seat with a look of regret. "Is it... Mo Bian left for me to accept?! ha ha..." "You think too much!" Someone passed by, just like a ghost, leaving no emotional sound. Chu ran looks at another assistant passing by, grins and hums, and continues to prepare relevant materials for the trial. The rain outside is still not big or small, hazy, with a wet smell. Li Xiaoyue turned on his mobile phone and began to check the newspaper he had just seen. He read the content again and again, with a touch of urgency in his eyes. The driver is the driver assigned by the hotel. Ye Chenyu is sitting in the co pilot, and Li Xiaoyue is sitting in the back alone, looking at the streets of London "You''ve been to the library before. Why didn''t you find the newspaper?" Ye Chenyu asked unintentionally. Li Xiaoyue didn''t want to pay attention to Ye Chenyu, but after thinking about it, she still said: "there was no special search for this information before..." after a pause, she was a little annoyed. "If she found it last time, the second court must be over." "Oh?!" Ye Chenyu''s eyes were deep, and his sight fell in front, watching the wiper swing from time to time. Li Xiaoyue looked at the front of his eyes and saw that ye Chenyu didn''t know what he was playing with. He ignored it and looked down at the report in his mobile phone. Although such news can not become strong evidence, the parties can play a certain role. The adhesion between one''s own lawyer team and the other''s lawyer team is only poor. If she can make a breakthrough, she is confident to win in court. The bus shuttled through downtown London and finally reached the destination Li Xiaoyue was going to. Ye Chenyu got out of the car first, opened his umbrella and opened the door of the back seat. Li Xiaoyue got out of the car, instinctively took out the folding umbrella from his bag and wanted to open it There was no action yet. She just felt that her body had been caught by the big palm, and the person had entered under Ye Chenyu''s black umbrella. "Let go..." Li Xiaoyue has formed a muscle reaction to Ye Chenyu now. She doesn''t need to think about it and begins to struggle. "Don''t let go!" Ye Chenyu was so evil that he hugged Li Xiaoyue and walked forward. Li Xiaoyue was so angry that he clenched his teeth, "Ye Chenyu, let me go..." "Are you going to spend time with me here, or solve the case quickly?" Ye Chenyu glanced at Li Xiaoyue frivolously. He didn''t care about her and continued to hold her forward. Ye Chenyu''s strength increased a little because Li Xiaoyue wanted to get rid of it. After hearing the "hissing" sound, an angry voice came, "Ye Chenyu, you hurt me!" "Be good, I won''t do you?" Ye Chenyu''s words are ambiguous. Li Xiaoyue was speechless at once, but he also saw that ye Chenyu wouldn''t let go. "I''ll settle accounts with you when I''m done later." Ye Chenyu''s eyes were deep, hugged Li Xiaoyue and said, "look at the specific location... Don''t waste time." Li Xiaoyue snorted, but he still looked at his mobile phone and said the specific location. He didn''t find that ye Chenyu hugged her and walked with "s". Far away Under the same umbrella, there is a tall figure standing there. In the earphone, there was the sound of dark piles arranged. "The other party is obviously an expert in this field. The route is inconvenient to assassinate..." The man raised his umbrella slightly and looked at Ye Chenyu in front. He deliberately didn''t take a straight line. At the same time, he basically calculated how to go next every step. Either someone covered it or a building covered the best shooting point. "You retreat..." the man said. "Give it to Phil." The other end of the headset responded and retreated to the sniper point. The tall man was cold in his deep eyes. He didn''t expect that ye Chenyu''s sensitivity was so high Fortunately, he did not intend to really engage in assassination in the street, adding the possibility of being detrimental to his own side. "Here..." Li Xiaoyue pointed to an old bookstore in front of him. Ye Chenyu didn''t move, and his keen eyes flashed around. The peaceful atmosphere fills the old street. In the air, there is no dignified smell just now He has been undercover for many years, because he is in danger all the time. Naturally, he also has a high sense of smell for murderous Qi. It''s just... Ye Chenyu is a little strange. The other party just followed all the way? Or do you want to see Li Xiaoyue''s purpose now and what will he do later? "If you''re sure this person is useful," Ye Chenyu said, "try to invite him to the hotel." "Nonsense, of course..." Li Xiaoyue rolled his eyes. "If it is beneficial to us, it must be protected. Otherwise, who knows whether the other party will make an evil move?!" "Hmm..." Ye Chenyu answered and walked into the second-hand bookstore with Li Xiaoyue. The doorbell at the door made a clear sound as they pushed the door open, and the rain came in. Ye Chenyu closed the door when Li Xiaoyue looked around the bookstore. "Anyone?" Li Xiaoyue asked. In the bookstore, maybe because of the weather, maybe because of the old city, or because there are too many old books... The whole line of sight becomes dim under the dim light. Ye Chenyu stood at the door and didn''t move. Just a pair of dark eyes, penetrating a sharp little across the seemingly small but deep second-hand bookstore. Li Xiaoyue walked forward with doubts on his face and asked, "is anyone there?" A rustle came from a pile of books, and a man with a full beard stood up. "If you need anything, you can find it yourself..." the man with beard stood up. "You can see that I''m... Messy." He smiled kindly, "generally Taoke do it by themselves." "Sorry, I''m not here to search for books." Li Xiaoyue was a little sorry, "excuse me, are you laborious?" Chapter 969 "Yes!" Effortlessly put the book in his hand at random, "what''s up?" Li Xiaoyue nodded and hurried forward, "excuse me, this news and you..." Ye Chenyu still stood at the door, occasionally looking out through the small pane glass on the door, and occasionally glancing at Li Xiaoyue and Li Xiaoyue. The smell of rain pervaded the air. In addition, it was in the bookstore. The smell of books also led to the musty smell of old books. Ye Chenyu frowned slightly, and his sight crossed again. "It''s not that I don''t want to help," said the laborious embarrassment. "I finally began to live a peaceful life. I really don''t want to be involved in such a thing again." Li Xiaoyue tried to persuade him. He was moved with emotion and told with reason. He could hardly wait to cry. Ye Chenyu''s mouth was filled with a teasing smile. The line of sight originally on the laborious body inadvertently fell on Li Xiaoyue''s face. Gradually, he was a little distracted. Li Xiaoyue pestered Li Xiaoyue so hard that he couldn''t compare with a lawyer''s eloquence. Finally, he had to hesitate to agree "Well..." Li Xiaoyue''s eyes turned. "It''s dinner time later. Can I invite you to dinner?" Afraid of trying to refuse, she hurriedly said, "I''d like to know about you and your old books." After listening with great effort, his obvious eyes lit up, "of course!" Li Xiaoyue turned back and raised his eyebrows towards Ye Chenyu. It was a great feeling. Ye Chenyu smiled and opened the door first. At the right time, ye Chenyu''s mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. He put his foot slightly against the door and took out his mobile phone. Seeing that it was mo Shaochen''s, he looked back at the effort of getting up, and then took back his sight. "Huh?" Ye Chenyu is light. "Chenyu, look, is Xiao Yue in the hotel?" Mo Shaochen''s voice was urgent. Ye Chenyu immediately frowned, "what happened?" "I''ve just finished contacting the client, and I don''t have time to elaborate at this moment..." Mo Shaochen made a long story short. "If Xiao Yue wants to see a laborious person, you stop me!" Ye Chenyu suddenly turned back and looked at Li Xiaoyue''s rigid body standing there. He slowly said, "it''s too late..." When the words fell, he didn''t wait for Mo Shaochen to react. He hung his hand and cut off the phone. Li Xiaoyue smiled at the corners of her mouth, and the cold gun hit her temple while ye Chenyu answered the phone, with the smell of death. "Ye Chenyu..." Li Xiaoyue''s voice trembled a little, and his eyes looked at Ye Chenyu with complex emotions. Ye Chenyu just lightly crossed Li Xiaoyue, but it was this eye that showed great comfort. Li Xiaoyue bit his lip, and his face was slightly pale She could even hear her heart beating violently because of fear. "Get out!" Effortlessly looked at Ye Chenyu and said that the hand holding the gun also leaned more against Li Xiaoyue''s skin. Li Xiaoyue tried to calm herself down a little. She knew that if she panicked at the moment, it would only put her and ye Chenyu in danger. Ye Chenyu didn''t move. His eyes and efforts confronted each other. Obviously, neither of them would give in. "Have you seen the dark gun directed by Tang Yitong?" Ye Chenyu asked quietly, "it''s the one that won six awards for best director at the Oscars." Li Xiaoyue frowned slightly. He didn''t understand how ye Chenyu mentioned the film at this moment. "Yes..." "Yes." Ye Chenyu smiled at the corner of his mouth. Under the laborious doubt, his body seemed to withdraw from the door, "the female owner inside is an undercover, and when she is seen through..." Li Xiaoyue suddenly dilated his pupils and even looked at Ye Chenyu a little unbelievably. Her breath began to rush, and ye Chenyu''s light flashed across the expression on her face and knew that she understood what he meant. "Hurry up!" Struggling to understand Chinese and not knowing what they were talking about, he threatened again with impatience and impatience, "otherwise, I''ll kill her now!" Ye Chenyu darkened his eyes. He was sure that the found newspaper was deliberately let them find it. The news of this man is true, even the things of that year are true It''s just that he''s the other person now. Unfortunately Everyone wants to live. He doesn''t want to confront him directly. He wants to live. According to the design of these old houses, there should be a back door here. He went out with Li Xiaoyue in his hand. Killing her is running away. He has a chance! Ye Chenyu quickly exchanged eyes with Li Xiaoyue, and then took a small step to the side Li Xiaoyue clearly remembered the scene in the film, because they went to see the film together not long after Mo Mo married Gu Beichen. The woman''s undercover identity was revealed, but the man who had been working with her couldn''t bear to let her be killed by the boss. He wanted to save her. By virtue of the silent steps of the man in love, there are three times in the ordinary day. Three! Li Xiaoyue''s heart has been mentioned to her throat. She is afraid of going wrong because of her cowardice. After all, the woman in the film is undercover and has kung fu... And she is just a lawyer. Two! Li Xiaoyue''s breathing has been forgotten. Even, she feels that her body is stiff and can''t move. One! Suddenly, Li Xiaoyue didn''t know where the strength came from. Even, it all depended on the muscle reflex in the film plot. He bent his arms, squatted down, and put an elbow on his laborious stomach! The sudden change was laborious. Before even having time to respond, ye Chenyu stepped forward with an arrow, passed the heavy book on one side and smashed it Li Xiaoyue hurriedly wanted to run to the other side, even if his legs were too soft to lift. She must be strong now. She can''t drag Ye Chenyu down! However, she really can''t lift her legs and feet like lead, so she can only move over there with the table Because of nervousness and fear, her stomach inadvertently bumped into the corner of the table, and there was a bang. The books on it were unstable and fell one after another. At the same time, I heard another strange voice across Under the silencer, the gunfire is not obvious! At least, under the tension of Li Xiaoyue, she didn''t find the sound of the book falling. What else? Ye Chenyu kicked with a flying kick. While the gun in his hand was kicked off, a knife passed by, and others had fainted. He first locked the front door and hung the sign of "close the door", then pulled up the paralyzed Li Xiaoyue. "Go..." Ye Chenyu hugged Li Xiaoyue with one hand and walked to the back door. Taking advantage of the situation, he calmly dialed the police station and quickly told the situation here. People had left the bookstore with Li Xiaoyue. Everything happened too fast! Before the people waiting outside waited for the news, there was the sound of the siren of the police car Ye Chenyu didn''t dare to take the main road, but took Li Xiaoyue to shuttle through the old alley. It''s still raining outside. As he walked, ye Chenyu didn''t hold Li Xiaoyue''s other hand. It was wet and sticky, winding down the skin Finally, it converges into a dazzling red in the palm! Chapter 970 Li Xiaoyue has no idea at all, so she can only let Ye Chenyu walk with her seven turns and eight turns Because it was raining and nervous, Li Xiaoyue didn''t find Ye Chenyu wrong, but followed his footsteps with shortness of breath. Ye Chenyu suddenly clenched his hand when the blood wound to the palm of his hand, and then put his hand into his trouser pocket. The other party will soon find that they left and left blood stains, which is tantamount to leaving clues for them "Ye Chenyu..." Li Xiaoyue''s voice trembled under tension, "where are we going?" "I don''t know!" Ye Chenyu tilted his head and picked his eyebrows. "I''m here for the first time. Haven''t you been to London several times?" "I... I''m not familiar with it!" Li Xiaoyue said, anxious in his voice, "I''ve come here several times, just those places. I haven''t been here!" "It''s all right. The earth is round anyway." Ye Chenyu''s voice was full of banter. "Ah?!" Li Xiaoyue looked sideways at Ye Chenyu. Because of the rain, water beads fell on his evil face, showing a bit of wild madness. Ye Chenyu glanced at Li Xiaoyue, with his annoying smile on his lips: "anyway, we have been moving forward, and finally we will return to the starting point..." Hearing this, Li Xiaoyue immediately knew that ye Chenyu was teasing her, "can you be serious?" "I''m very serious..." Ye Chenyu smiled at the corners of his mouth, and his breathing was slightly heavy because of his rapid footsteps. Li Xiaoyue didn''t talk to Ye Chenyu anymore. He just followed his footsteps angrily. It seemed that he didn''t find that she wasn''t so nervous just now. They didn''t know how long they had been walking around. When Li Xiaoyue was stuffed into the car by Ye Chenyu, she was in a trance. "Go back to the hotel." When ye Chenyu got on the co pilot, he motioned to the driver. The driver didn''t know what had happened. He just answered and started the car back to the hotel. Li Xiaoyue''s tense mood improved a little. She looked at the passing street scenery on the street and suddenly frowned, "this... Is it really back to the starting point?!" "You think too much!" Ye Chenyu looked back at Li Xiaoyue, "on the way here, I have checked the nearby map." "..." Li Xiaoyue stared in surprise, "when did it happen?" Ye Chenyu looked back and his left hand trembled slightly because of the wound. Fortunately, the roads in London are opposite to those in China, and the parking spaces are also opposite... He leaned his left arm against the door and couldn''t see it from behind. "Do you think everyone is the same as you. When you are impulsive and excited, you forget others?" Ye Chenyu''s teasing showed a trace of ridicule. Li Xiaoyue smiled at the corners of his mouth and wanted to refute, but at the thought of the situation just now, he wilted again. The whole person was afraid to lie back on the car seat and slightly lowered his eyes, "I''m sorry..." Ye Chenyu glanced back and didn''t speak. The atmosphere inside the car is a little strange. The driver can''t understand Chinese. Naturally, he doesn''t know what happened to the two people on the car. Li Xiaoyue seems to be in a depressed mood. She suddenly wondered, if it wasn''t Ye Chenyu who came with her at that time, would she and the female SWAT who protected her get out of danger so safely? "Thank you..." Li Xiaoyue raised her eyes. "At that time, did you feel different?!" On the way, he also specifically asked why the evidence suddenly appeared, and she didn''t think deeply. Ye Chenyu lay back on the seat, his face slightly began to turn white, "you don''t have to feel guilty..." His voice was calm. "Your strength is the court, not the perception and handling of danger." After a pause, "if you have the ability, you don''t need our protection team." Li Xiaoyue lowered his eyes, "in fact, you can remind me..." Ye Chenyu smiled. "Remind you, you won''t collect strong evidence for the trial?" "..." Li Xiaoyue was speechless for a moment. As a lawyer, she can''t let go of any favorable evidence. "But I can be careful..." Li Xiaoyue''s voice lost the tension with Ye Chenyu on weekdays. It was all guilt for fear. Ye Chenyu was silent. After a while, he slowly said, "just be yourself..." "Huh?" Li Xiaoyue didn''t hear clearly. He raised his eyes and looked at Ye Chenyu lying on the seat. "What are you talking about?" Ye Chenyu didn''t move, but his face became paler and paler. "I said, just do what you should do as a lawyer. The rest, whether you need to protect or resist the danger, are the things of the protection action team." Car, stop at the gate of the hotel in time. What else did Li Xiaoyue want to say, but ye Chenyu interrupted, "you go up first..." "And you?" Li Xiaoyue frowned. Ye Chenyu smiled, turned his head, looked jokingly and asked, "how... Care about me?" "..." Li Xiaoyue immediately stared, "not for two seconds, hum!" She looked back angrily, opened the door and got out of the car. But when she closed the door, she saw the female SWAT assigned to her come out and protect her into the hotel. "Why are you here?" Li Xiaoyue asked. "Brother Chen just sent me a message and asked me to wait for you at the door." Li Xiaoyue frowned slightly and looked back subconsciously The only thing that catches the eye is the car that starts and leaves slowly. "Is he usually so careful?" Li Xiaoyue asked. The female SWAT shrugged, "I don''t know. We cooperated with brother Chen for the first time... He was airborne from above. At first, everyone was dissatisfied. He singled out five people in the group and beat them all down without mercy!" "And then?" Li Xiaoyue stared. He didn''t expect to be so bloody. The female SWAT smiled, "they all fell down, and then what?! of course, they were convinced one by one." In fact, the police, especially those related to the action team... To some extent, they are the same as in some places. They speak with strength! "However, we are really convinced to come out this time..." the female special police officer smiled, and her face was obviously flushed with worship. "Brother Chen is estimated to be more mice, so his alertness and smell are particularly high." "Mouse?!" Li Xiaoyue looked at the female SWAT suspiciously. "..." the female special police officer was surprised that she said too much and quickly smiled awkwardly, "no, nothing..." Li Xiaoyue frowned slightly, but he also knew that they had their own rules, so they didn''t ask much. Shortly after Li Xiaoyue and the female SWAT entered the elevator, the previous car stopped at the door of the hotel after circling the road in front of the hotel. "The car is dirty, remember to clean..." Ye Chenyu looked at the driver and said, "how do you deal with it when you turn back? Let''s meet each other." ¡°Yes Sir£¡¡± After the driver answered, he frowned and asked, "don''t you need to deal with your wound?" "Ye Chenyu will not be aware of the other party''s injury before the court session..." I must ensure that I am not hurt before the court session. " The driver''s face was a little dignified, but he understood what he meant and could only nod. Ye Chenyu looked at the hotel and got off the bus At the same time, the female SWAT sent her a text message: Li Bian went back to his room, changed his clothes and went to the office area. Ye Chenyu''s eyes deepened and replied: follow at any time. Don''t leave the protection and monitoring scope. The hotel is not allowed to go out. He took his cell phone, got into the elevator at the right time, and went directly to the floor where he lived Chapter 971 Mo Shaochen hurried back. When he saw Li Xiaoyue leaning against the window with his coffee cup in his hands, he put his heart down slightly. Mo Shaochen first swept around and saw everyone there. After secretly sighing, he went to Li Xiaoyue. "What''s the matter?" Mo Shaochen''s voice was soft and soothing. Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen, his face lines collapsed tightly, "thought he found favorable evidence, but finally found it was a trap." "What''s going on?" Mo Shaochen pretended not to know and asked. Now he must let Li Xiaoyue put down all his worries and worries, otherwise, the next game will be very difficult. After Mo Shaochen asked about the exit, Li Xiaoyue said all the hard things to find. The guilt accumulated in my heart since I came back, as if it had been slightly relieved after being told to Mo Shaochen. "Elder martial brother," Li Xiaoyue lowered her eyes, "if it weren''t for ye Chenyu, I really think today..." her mouth was astringent, "who knows what will happen in the end?!" Mo Shaochen turned and leaned on the windowsill, looking at Li Xiaoyue. "It''s good that everyone is okay. We have our responsibility, and Chenyu has Chenyu''s responsibility..." Li Xiaoyue also learned from Mo Shaochen leaning on the windowsill, "he is very annoying, but at this time, I admire him very much..." "Huh?" Mo Shaochen is light. "Everyone has his own way of working. His calm makes people feel terrible." Li Xiaoyue took a deep breath. "Fortunately, he is a policeman. If he is a bad man, he is too terrible." No one knows what he is arranging every word he says and every unimportant thing he does? Mo Shaochen stared at Li Xiaoyue deeply. After a while, he slowly said, "Xiaoyue, everyone''s life experience is not for nothing." Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen, and the corners of his mouth subconsciously burst into tears. "I, you, Chenyu..." Mo Shaochen''s voice was far-reaching, "including Beichen and Jianmo." Li Xiaoyue''s nose was sour in an instant. Mo Shaochen sighed, "everyone''s success and experience are accumulated by the past... Don''t hate a person easily, and don''t change for a person easily. You are a lawyer and Chenyu is a policeman, okay?" Li Xiaoyue lowered her eyes and smiled. The original sadness was replaced by relief in an instant. "Thank you, senior brother..." Li Xiaoyue raised his eyes and said softly. Mo Shaochen just smiled faintly, "I have something to do with Chenyu. If you are too tired, go and have a rest. There is always a way to hold a court session." "Yes!" Li Xiaoyue answered and watched Mo Shaochen leave. In this world, there is always such a person who knows all your past... But he will never sympathize or pity you because of the past. He knows everything about you. When you are confused, he will tell you how to see the road ahead Li Xiaoyue got up and looked out of the window. It was still misty with drizzle. Elder martial brother is right. At this moment, she should not be full of guilt for ye Chenyu. Instead, she should calm down and solve her responsibilities Just as ye Chenyu never forgot his responsibility. ¡­¡­ When the door bell rang, ye Chenyu looked through the cat''s eyes and saw that it was mo Shaochen and opened the door. "Hurt?!" Mo Shaochen smelled the bloody smell in the air and frowned immediately. Then his eyes fell on Ye Chenyu''s left arm. "Yes!" Ye Chenyu answered, "the place is too small to display, so he got hurt." "Is it for Xiao Yue?" Mo Shaochen asked, but he was sure. Ye Chenyu''s skill is not weak, Beichen said. There must be no problem with self-protection "Xiao Yue doesn''t know?" Mo Shaochen asked again. His eyes fell on the tea table, simple medicine bags and other things, and frowned, "are you going to deal with it yourself?!" "Let her know it''s not necessary. It increases her burden and affects the opening of the court..." Ye Chenyu said it doesn''t matter. He looked evil. "I also expect you two to solve it quickly and return home... Shit, it''s a nightmare to eat too much here!" Mo Shaochen frowned and was dissatisfied with Ye Chenyu''s Gu Zuoyan. "At least deal with it, you......" he looked at the bullets that had been dug out on one side and felt his heart burst. Ye Chenyu was dismissive. "It''s not his own place. It''s inconvenient to go to the hospital..." he smiled at the corners of his mouth. "When he was undercover, he had to deal with those more serious than this." Mo Shaochen''s heart position, inexplicably across the acerbity under the heartache. He is a criminal advocate. He has many opportunities to deal with the police and knows about undercover. How many people finally rebelled against the temptation, or died inexplicably?! There''s so little you can do "Why don''t Beichen run it for you?" Mo Shaochen suddenly changed the subject. Ye Chenyu raised his eyes and looked at Mo Shaochen deeply. After staring at Mo Shaochen for a while, he suddenly smiled. However, such a smile is full of acerbity under helplessness. "He has helped me a lot. What I should do by myself, I can''t always count on others..." Ye Chenyu said this deeply and hid the bitterness. Mo Shaochen didn''t hear it at all. So that when Mo Shaochen recalled his words today... In front of Ye Chenyu, he cried when his parents died! "Don''t let slip your tongue in front of Li Xiaoyue..." Ye Chenyu broke some dignified and sad atmosphere and said with an evil smile, "if she turns around and says she wants to make a promise with her own life, I can''t afford it." Mo Shaochen frowned and looked at Ye Chenyu deeply. "Why, don''t you like her?" He smiled, only a little dry. "I think you''re very happy to tease her every day." Ye Chenyu''s eyes were deeply on Mo Shaochen. After a while, he slowly said, "Shaochen, if I really chase her, you have no problem?" If you are gentle, you can''t tell whether he is intentional or intentional Even, it''s just a joke! Mo Shaochen narrowed his eyes slightly invisible, and the fundus of his eyes gradually showed a light of resistance The two faced each other like this. Mo Shaochen didn''t speak, but ye Chenyu''s evil smile grew deeper and deeper. "Ding Dong!" The sound of the doorbell broke the stiffness between the two people. "It should be the hotel who sent anti-inflammatory drugs..." Ye Chenyu said and wanted to get up. "I''ll go!" Mo Shaochen had taken the lead in getting up and walking to the door. He also looked carefully from the cat''s eye. It was the staff of the hotel who served them on this floor. Take back your sight, Mo Shaochen opened the door But when he saw Li Xiaoyue who had just stopped by the door, he immediately frowned. "Why are you here?" Mo Shaochen asked calmly, but he didn''t mean to make way at all. Li Xiaoyue is not a fool. She looked inside the guest room, looked at the medical supplies in the waiter''s tray, and smiled at the corner of her mouth, "is Ye Chenyu hurt?!" Chapter 972 Mo Shaochen frowned slightly, looked at the waiter with disinfectants and other things in his eyes, took the tray and motioned to Li Xiaoyue. Li Xiaoyue and Mo Shaochen entered the guest room together. There was a strange smell in the air, mixed with a strong taste of alcohol. Ye Chenyu was wearing a black shirt, and the sleeves on both sides were pulled up to his elbow, revealing the dazzling scratch on his left little arm. Mo Shaochen immediately frowned and looked at Ye Chenyu with questioning eyes, even angry. In order to cover up the gunshot wound, he deliberately disguised a wound before Xiao Yue came in?! Even, pretending to clean the wound, made a room full of alcohol smell, covering up the strong smell of blood! "Are you really hurt?!" Li Xiaoyue''s face slightly changed and came forward. Looking at the dazzling and frightening scratch of Ye Chenyu, he frowned. "It was scratched by the butt of the gun..." Ye Chenyu said lightly, "it''s no big deal." Then he looked at Li Xiaoyue with a look of surprise and worry, and his eyes were ambiguous, "tut Tut, it''s still cute to converge and stab... Women should be the same as little white rabbits." Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrow, looked at Mo Shaochen and took the tray in his hand Li Xiaoyue bit his lower lip and wanted to refute Ye Chenyu''s words. He even wanted to swear angrily. "The wound is so big, what do you mean it''s okay?!" Ye Chenyu smiled and said in a more evil voice: "if you are guilty, you don''t have to. Of course... If you are distressed, I will accept it." "Ye Chenyu!" Li Xiaoyue immediately glared with dissatisfaction. Does this man feel bad if he doesn''t owe his mouth?! He''s hurt, but he''s here to deal with the wound himself? "Go!" Li Xiaoyue watched Ye Chenyu skillfully sprinkle hemostatic medicine on the wound, frowned and said, "I''ll take you to the hospital!" "Go to the hospital with this scratch?" Ye Chenyu turned his eyes disdainfully. "Miss, I''m a policeman. I''ll cry for this injury. Do I want to take my brother?" "For the sake of face, are you not afraid of wound infection?" Li Xiaoyue was in a hurry. "You just came back all the way. You''re in the rain!" "So I''m disinfecting and taking anti-inflammatory drugs now!" Ye Chenyu still looks like a ruffian and doesn''t care at all. Mo Shaochen sat opposite and looked at Ye Chenyu with deep eyes. As Xiao Yue said, this man, if his mind is crooked, is definitely a terrible person I heard Xiao Yue outside, but it was a pause of up to one minute. He put on his clothes and cut his wound Even, fill the space with alcohol to cover up the strong smell of blood! Li Xiaoyue looked at Ye Chenyu from beginning to end and fooled around there to deal with the wound. His angry mouth became a line, "don''t you go to the hospital?" "Don''t go..." Ye Chenyu''s voice was lazy. Mo Shaochen converged on Ye Chenyu and looked at Li Xiaoyue. "Xiaoyue, Chenyu knows it in his mind." "It''s up to you..." Li Xiaoyue said, gritting his teeth, turned and left. When Mo Shaochen''s face was dignified and ye Chenyu''s evil smile became deeper and deeper. Li Xiaoyue, who was about to go to the door, suddenly stopped and clenched her hand. She turned angrily on her face and turned back angrily. When the two men didn''t know why, she grabbed the hemostatic powder and disinfection in Ye Chenyu''s hand and silently began to treat his wound. The atmosphere is a little strange. Mo Shaochen didn''t speak, but his eyes were always watching Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu leaned lazily on the sofa. There was moisture from the gunshot wound on his arm. When he was about to spread from his arm, he held down the momentum. "I was suddenly thinking..." Ye Chenyu looked at Li Xiaoyue and silently applied medicine to him, and the evil flatterer opened his mouth. "If I was shot directly, hey, would you be moved by guilt and cry directly?" He said, laughing first. "Not all the TV dramas are like that... I hated it before. Suddenly, the man was injured in order to save the woman. The woman suddenly broke out and found that you were in love with... Ow..." Ye Chenyu was happy when he heard an exaggerated howl. Mo Shaochen immediately frowned and looked at Li Xiaoyue. "Then you have to be the man!" Li Xiaoyue was so angry that he put the medicine bottle on the tea table and got up. Staring at Ye Chenyu, he said gnashing his teeth, "you are energetic. Sure enough... You don''t need to go to the hospital!" Then she turned angrily and left. I opened the door of the guest room and slammed it with a bang "If you have such a big temper, you''re not afraid that no one wants it!" Ye Chenyu make complaints about his teeth, and look at his face. "I thought you were really okay!" Mo Shaochen jokingly said that at the same time, he had already got up. "Shit, if I''m not angry with her, my arms will be useless..." Ye Chenyu''s forehead has overflowed with cold sweat. The line of sight crossed Li Xiaoyue. Because he was molested by him, he didn''t hold his strength. He glanced at the cotton swab pressed on his wound and pulled it from the corner of his mouth. Mo Shaochen picked up Ye Chenyu, carefully took off his shirt and said, "Xiao Yue is not as unbearable as you think..." his voice was a little dignified. "Chenyu, don''t underestimate her. She is stronger than you think." "Really? I don''t see..." Ye Chenyu''s face is a little pale. "No matter how strong, isn''t it all a woman?" Mo Shaochen''s movement stagnated, and then he hung his eyes astringently, "yes, it''s always a woman... Need protection!" Ye Chenyu glanced at Mo Shaochen and didn''t answer. "You are cruel enough to yourself..." Mo Shaochen looked at Ye Chenyu and frowned at his slightly festering mouth because he was pressed on the sofa. "Chenyu, you really don''t have to deal with your wound?" "Nothing..." Ye Chenyu said lightly. Mo Shaochen glanced at Ye Chenyu lightly, looked at his face turned white and sank his eyes slightly. After giving him a simple treatment of the wound, he got up with his mobile phone and went to the window. "Don''t call Beichen..." Ye Chenyu glanced at Mo Shaochen, with a slight weakness in his voice. Mo Shaochen frowned, "if you don''t go to the hospital, you need to find a reliable doctor to have a look..." after a pause, he said, "the boss of the fourth young has a large sphere of influence. Let Beichen find him to send a trusted doctor." "Shaochen, don''t disturb him." Ye Chenyu closed his eyes. "I won''t make fun of myself... I don''t want to be a civilian in the future." He opened his eyes again and looked slightly at Mo Shaochen, "he and Jian Mo have experienced so much, so he should put everything down..." Mo Shaochen put his hand on the top of the "dial" button and didn''t press it out. Hearing him say this, he was inexplicably blocked up. "Chenyu," Mo Shaochen twisted his eyebrows and looked at Ye Chenyu with deep eyes, "do you forget to think about yourself when you think about everyone like this?" Chapter 973 Ye Chenyu smiled at the corners of his mouth, "Shaochen, people are selfish..." He converged his eyes and looked ahead. "Who really thinks blindly about others and never thinks about himself?" In the light Yi''s voice, there was a mockery that didn''t cover up first. However, Mo Shaochen couldn''t tell whether it was self mockery or something "What have you considered?" Mo Shaochen was inexplicably angry and even added, "in order not to burden Xiao Yue, you hide the gunshot wound. In order to make Beichen and Jian Mo travel easily, you even give up the available resources..." "Have you ever thought about..." Ye Chenyu glanced slightly and looked deeply at Mo Shaochen, "why would I be the leader of this action team?" Mo Shaochen frowned slightly, "isn''t it a task? What''s more, you have rich experience when you''re undercover..." Officer Wang recommended him like this, even strongly. Vaguely, I hope he can recommend Chenyu directly to the chairman and press down the order directly from above "Oh!" Ye Chenyu sneered, "that''s all the reason for the appearance." Mo Shaochen frowned more tightly and resisted to wait for ye Chenyu''s words. "As the leader of Chenyu''s protection team, my voice is different from that of Chenyu''s." even if I didn''t win the case this time, I won the most. " "But if you win..." Ye Chenyu''s eyes narrowed gradually, and his voice said with desire, "as the leader of the action team to protect your safe return home, I will be promoted!" Mo Shaochen was not relieved, but became even more angry. "I think you''ve really done more undercover..." Mo Shaochen snorted coldly. "You''ve disguised so much that you forget how to express your real ideas." Ye Chenyu shrugged and made no comment. Facing Mo Shaochen, he could not refute it. "Chenyu," Mo Shaochen said weakly, "have you ever thought that if you are like this, will your family worry?" Ye Chenyu immediately frowned, and the expression of evil and cunning on his face suddenly couldn''t hang up. He kept it from his mother when he was undercover. In fact, in addition to my mother, and Beichen, who say they are relatives but not relatives... Who cares? A touch of self mockery crossed the position of the heart. It was only a moment, and ye Chenyu restrained his mood. "Why are you talking so much? You''re a lawyer, but I''m sure you can''t..." Ye Chenyu changed the topic, and his usual evil spirit and ruffian spirit hung around his mouth. "Don''t fill me with soul chicken soup, have a drink with me?" "You look like a ghost, still drink?" Mo Shaochen made a direct mockery without concealment. Ye Chenyu twitched at the corner of his mouth. "It''s not necessary to drink a glass of wine. Can you drink a glass of water with me?" As soon as Mo Shaochen heard this, he endured the dissatisfied eyes of Shang Ye Chenyu. He had no choice but to laugh, "you just want to run to the bathroom!" "Don''t look back, you can''t get out of there..." Ye Chenyu fought back. Mo Shaochen sighed, shook his head and poured two glasses of water. The sound of "Dang" and the sound of glass collision showed a feeling of brotherhood. However, only Ye Chenyu knows that Mo Shaochen, who treats him as a friend at the moment, is his real blood related brother. Shaochen If one day, the secret is no longer a secret, will you have a toast with me? ¡­¡­ Chu ran feels that Li Xiaoyue is in a wrong state today. She is in a daze at the file from time to time. Although she has seen those things thoroughly, she has been looking at them all the time, just hoping to find some clues. "Sister Yue, you seem to be in a bad mood after you go out to find evidence." Chu ran handed Li Xiaoyue a glass of water. Li Xiaoyue restrained his mind, looked at Chu ran, who was young and energetic, and smiled, "Chu ran, do you have anything special to worry about?" "Test the card..." Chu ran said without thinking, "I''m worried that I can''t get the lawyer card now." Li Xiaoyue smiled and nodded approvingly, "when I was your age, I also worried about this..." At every stage of life, people have troubles at every time. The girl said that the general manager of their family once told her. Life is one problem after another. When we solve this problem, there will always be another waiting... We can''t stop moving forward because we are afraid of many problems. But what''s her problem now? What was she thinking when she was struggling with a gun against her head? Ye Chenyu was injured today. What was she thinking? Or What was she thinking when she wanted to apply medicine to Ye Chenyu? After so many things happened, in fact, she is no longer a confused person. She knows what she wants, or what she is waiting for The pleasant mobile phone ring came at the right time, interrupting Li Xiaoyue''s thoughts. Took out his mobile phone and saw that it was Jian Mo, Li Xiaoyue suddenly burst into a smile, "tut Tut, have you forgotten me?" "Eh, I thought you were busy dealing with the two elites and were afraid of being disturbed by me!" Jane Mo fought back with a smile. Li Xiaoyue was silent, and Jian Mo felt it was wrong sensitively. "Eh... There''s a situation!" Li Xiaoyue had a headache and went to the window with a water glass. While listening to Jian Mo''s torture, Li Xiaoyue was helpless. "Miss, I''m here to work, not to travel like you, but to dream in my spare time!" "The combination of work and rest is the driving force..." Jian Mo raised her eyebrows. "I said, after getting along day and night, you think it''s better for Mo Shaochen who has first love and secret love, or..." Jane Mo paused deliberately, with an ambiguous smile on her face, and her voice became flirtatious, "hmm? Officer Ye Da is good? Ah?!" Li Xiaoyue sighed, leaned against the window and looked at the bright lights outside. "The third court is open. There will be results if there is no accident." Feeling that Li Xiaoyue didn''t want to talk about this topic, Jian Mo didn''t continue, "is it over in London?" "I can''t say. There may be follow-up problems that will stay for two days." "Then maybe we can meet there..." "Oh?" Li Xiaoyue was a little surprised. "Are you coming to London? The couple came to their alma mater to remember their youth?" "Yes..." Jian Mo''s voice suddenly became soft and said, "by the way, I will go to other cities to understand ah Chen''s past." "In the past? What other past has he had besides going to school in London?" Li Xiaoyue just instinctively asked with the reflection of lawyer''s occupational disease. "I don''t know. I just think there should be a story..." Jane Mo turned over on the bed and looked down at the bathroom with the sound of shower. "When will you come?" Li Xiaoyue asked. "Just these two days..." Jian Mo said with a smile, "if you are fast, you may be able to listen to the court where you and Shaochen double swords are combined." Paused, "if you''re slow, you should miss it." "It''s all right. My style," Li Xiaoyue raised her eyebrows, "you''ll see a lot of opportunities in the future." "Ha ha, I just like your self-confidence..." Jian Mo glanced. "However, I guess there are few opportunities to see you go to court with Mo Shaochen." Li Xiaoyue breathed a sigh of relief and thought so. It''s just that these good girlfriends didn''t think of it at the moment There are still such opportunities. Even, two people are still opposite in court! At that time, it caused quite a stir in the whole city of Los Angeles, especially in the legal profession Chapter 974 Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue said a few more words, and only hung up when Gu Beichen came out with a bath towel. "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen asked suspiciously when he saw that Jian Mo was looking at him and stepped forward. "I''m worried about Xiao Yue..." while Gu Beichen sat down, Jian Mo turned over and leaned his head against his leg. The fresh breath is permeated with male hormones and has a unique smell after bathing. Jian Mo''s sight slightly deviated and just fell on Gu Beichen''s abdominal muscle. "Is Xiaoyue''s case very difficult?" Gu Beichen casually threw the towel to wipe his hair aside on the cabinet. At the right time, Jian Mo''s weak boneless little hand began to slide slowly along his abdominal muscles with tender eyes. Gu Beichen''s breath was fluffy and disordered by Jian Mo in an instant, and the ink pupil deepened in an instant. "I don''t worry about things at work. I''m already very happy that Xiao Yue can stand in court again... I''m worried about her feelings." Jian Mo said, looking curiously at Gu Beichen, "I can''t see your movement. How do you maintain your abdominal muscles?" As soon as the words fell, Jane Mo turned to Gu Beichen''s fiery eyes. When he felt the danger, Yu Guangli already felt the hot breath of Gu Beichen "Ah!" Gu Beichen didn''t wait for Jian Mo''s reaction. He turned over and pressed her down "You say, how do I want you?" Gu Beichen''s voice was low and evil, and his thin lip was an eardrop with hot across Jian mo. Jian mo ''hee hee'' smiled and pushed Gu Beichen. Seeing that he couldn''t push it away, he let him make a bad smile and said, "I''m serious with you... Can you wait a minute?" "Didn''t you ask me how to keep my abs?" Gu Beichen slightly raised his eyes and looked at Jian Mo with a smile. "I''m doing it by myself. I''ll tell you why!" "..." Jian Mo took a smoke from the corner of her mouth, but without affectation, she began to pull the bath towel around Gu Beichen''s waist, but she also asked, "ah Chen, do you think Shaochen is suitable for Xiao Yue?" "I only know I''m suitable for you..." Gu Beichen has started ignition without obstacles. Jian Mo''s heart was itching and motioned Gu Beichen to continue, but he was so angry that she couldn''t get it at once. "Watch out, I let you sleep on the floor and choke you to death!" Jane Mo said angrily. Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo''s lips and comforted her, "who makes you not concentrate?" "Then who told you not to... Ah!" Jane Mo suddenly screamed convulsively, stared, and bit Gu Beichen hard. Gu Beichen smiled at the bottom of his eyes. He was not afraid of pain and continued to ignite. Jian Mo couldn''t at last, so she had to let Gu Beichen toss. Her voice became charming and continued: "I think they need some stimulation to cook frogs in warm water." "Yes." Gu Beichen responded faintly, obviously absent-minded. Under Gu Beichen''s bad influence, Jian Mo screamed angrily and continued to murmur carelessly: "in fact, I think the policeman is very good. In fact, lawyers and police also have the same face..." Gu Beichen frowned, "what policeman?" "What''s Ye Chenyu''s name?" Jian Mo continued, completely ignoring Gu Beichen''s expression. "It''s the leader of the action team who protects them... Xiao Yue had an intersection with him in Los Angeles before. I think the development is also good." Gu Beichen stopped, then said with a thick breath, "you''re thinking after I''m done!" He said, more ferocious... He didn''t give Jane mo the chance to fly there. But after this, Jane Mo was a little tired and didn''t think about it. She just nestled in Gu Beichen''s arm and fell asleep in a short while. Gu Beichen''s mind echoed with Jian Mo''s words. After thinking about it, he took his mobile phone and muted it first before sending a text message to Ye Chenyu. Beichen: how are you getting along with Shaochen? Ye Chenyu just changed the medicine for the wound. Looking at the time, he estimated that Gu Beichen sent a text message. It was Jian Mo who fell asleep and replied to the text message: work, OK! Gu Beichen frowned slightly: what did he find because he didn''t think much about it for so many days? Ye Chenyu: what did you do for so many years? Gu Beichen looked at the text message and didn''t reply. Ye Chenyu sent another one: what do you want to ask today? Just say it?! Gu Beichen didn''t turn again: what happened between you and Li Xiaoyue. Ye Chenyu looked at the message for a long time and didn''t respond. It seems to rethink Gu Beichen''s real purpose of asking this question, and it seems to be thinking about how to answer it. Ye Yu: I''ll reply later. Gu Beichen didn''t say much when he saw him say so. He just said that he might go outside London these days and didn''t talk about this topic again. ¡­¡­ The drizzle continued for two days. On the day of santing, the weather did not clear up, but the rain began to rain a little. But even so, it did not stop the media from madly reporting on today''s hearing. After Li Xiaoyue and others were transported to the court, they directly entered the court through a special channel. When entering the door, Li Xiaoyue subconsciously looked back. Ye Chenyu was talking to the head of the local police After something happened that day, she didn''t know how to deal with the follow-up problems. In short, before the court session, she didn''t leave the hotel and didn''t see ye Chenyu appear in front of her. "What''s the matter?" Mo Shaochen puts hot water in front of Li Xiaoyue. Li Xiaoyue shook his head at the corner of his mouth, "it''s all right." Mo Shaochen nodded, sat down and motioned to everyone to integrate their own part of the matter. When the court starts, don''t go wrong. "Elder martial brother..." Li Xiaoyue endured and opened his mouth. Mo Shaochen glanced at Li Xiaoyue with doubts in his eyes. "Is there a big problem with his injury?" Li Xiaoyue asked. Mo Shaochen''s eyes were deep and shook his head with a smile. "Skin injury, as he said, is much more hurt and used to it." Li Xiaoyue frowned, "who is injured to get used to it?!" Mo Shaochen smiled. Just when he wanted to talk, Li Xiaoyue''s mobile phone shook. She picked up the text message sent by Ye Chenyu and cut it open: let me guess, do you think about my injury now? Li Xiaoyue twitched at the corner of his mouth and replied: you think too much. I''m going to court in half an hour. Who has air traffic control over you? Ye Chenyu: Oh?! Why did you look at me so affectionately, worried and complicated just before you went in? Li Xiaoyue grinned secretly: the ghost sees you! Ye Chenyu smiled at the corners of his mouth, pushed open the door of the rest room and came in at the right time. Looking at Li Xiaoyue, he said, "after a long time, are you a ghost?" Li Xiaoyue was stunned at first. He saw a face "laughing at" her Ye Chenyu, and his face turned red. Chapter 975 "You..." Li Xiaoyue gritted his teeth, but he couldn''t say a word. All the people in the office looked over and didn''t know what had happened. They looked at each other. Ye Chenyu just took a deep look at Li Xiaoyue, and then walked over under the eyes of everyone. He completely ignored Mo Shaochen''s deep eyes and whispered in Li Xiaoyue''s ear. "Huh?" Li Xiaoyue didn''t hear clearly and looked confused. Seeing that she didn''t hear clearly, ye Chenyu said again: "fight well, at least earn back the good and hard expenses of the wound for me... Huh?" This time, his voice was low and full of charm caused by evil charm. Li Xiaoyue was stunned. He looked at Ye Chenyu''s cynical eyes, smiled at the corners of his mouth, and then nodded heavily. "You must get it back!" Li Xiaoyue said firmly. Ye Chenyu smiled at her, then got up, ignored everyone''s ambiguous eyes as if nothing had happened, and began to arrange the next station. Li Xiaoyue bit his lower lip and looked at Ye Chen''s back for a while before his eyes fell on his left arm "Elder martial brother, do you say... Do people have faith?" While Li Xiaoyue asked, he looked at Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen still looked calm and gentle, with a steady look, "yes." Li Xiaoyue smiled, "really?" "Yes." Mo Shaochen rubbed his hand against the water cup, "especially as lawyers, faith is often more important... Whether it''s because of interests or justice." He looked at the water glass, looked at the light, and a faint halo shone on the glass. His voice became far-reaching and said, "after the court session, I have something to say to you..." At the same time, his sight deviated slightly and looked at Li Xiaoyue. At a glance, both Li Xiaoyue and Mo Shaochen seem to find... Some things are different. Whether it is passing or about to face. Chu Ran is full of gossip. In addition, she is an assistant to sort out materials. The court said that she is the easiest. Naturally, she still has gossip time in a tense atmosphere. From the moment Ye Chenyu came in, Chu ran felt very confused. When Shen Chu said that sister Yue was secretly in love with Mo Bian, she was particularly interested in this matter It was because of her heart that she felt she was a bystander and could see clearly. Unfortunately, just when she thought that sister Yue was obsessed with Mo debate, officer ye would make some ambiguity, which made her feel that the drama of the three was complicated and confusing When I felt that sister Yue had a play with officer ye, I found that sister Yue was actually a persistent person! Hey Chu ran sighed and shook her head. She can''t see clearly as a bystander. I feel that the people in the bureau are even more messy. The lawyers here are relatively relaxed under the calm leadership of Mo Shaochen. Compared with them, it is obvious that the atmosphere of the other party''s lawyer team is a little dignified. Stephen is following Brian''s call, listening to the inquiry inside, with a slightly old face and dignified, "the court has issued a warning..." "And then?" Blaine''s voice was filled with a gloomy breath. "Why, without small moves, can''t you win?" Stephen frowned. "That''s not what I mean, Mr. Blaine." "I didn''t spend so much money to make it difficult for you to tell me!" Brian said coldly. "Yes, I understand!" Stephen said and heard a hang up sound on the phone. The stiff atmosphere fled into the air. When the two sides began the debate between you and me under the guidance of the judge, it pushed the atmosphere to a tense and breathless point. "Brother Chen," Qiao Rui grinned, "it seems that the other party is under a lot of pressure today!" "Do you understand?" Ye Chenyu stood in the corner with his pocket in one hand. Qiao Rui raised his eyebrows. "I don''t understand... Look at your face!" He continued to grin. "Didn''t you say that people''s expressions and eyes are what we need to pay attention to most?" Ye Chenyu glanced at Qiao Rui and didn''t speak. "Oh, you can return home after that..." Qiao Rui said with relief. "I miss my gutter oil and additives in a great country so much!" Ye Chenyu ignored Qiao Rui and allowed him to be there from Nan to zihi. His sight gradually forgot the others and fell on Li Xiaoyue She was radiant in court, especially under the guidance of Shaochen, she seemed to be able to give full play to everything without reservation. Shaochen is a myth in the legal world. This myth is not just that he is powerful... He can make people around him subconsciously move closer to his position. Ye Chenyu''s sight became deeper and deeper. He didn''t hear what Qiao Rui said. At the bottom of my eyes, I just have mixed feelings for Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue. Even in the end, he didn''t know whether it was family affection, friendship... Or love! With the final closing statement, the air in the whole court became tense and compelling. Whether it''s lawyers, clients... Or observers. Even juries and judges are emotionally complicated by the closing statements of both sides. "Remind the jury..." the judge restrained his mind, looked at the jury and said the precautions to them before looking at the people. "Due to the complexity of the case, according to the requirements of the jury, he will be given two hours to discuss the result." Everyone''s mood was tense at this moment, and the next two hours made everyone unable to settle down. Ye Chenyu and others escorted the lawyer team to the lounge "This is the man?" Blaine looked at Ye Chenyu''s back in the monitoring room and asked. "Yes, sir!" Blaine''s eye socket became gloomy with the darkness of his sight. While everyone entered the lounge, ye Chenyu instinctively looked around and stopped at a monitoring place. "Four eyes" relative, Brian looked at Ye Chenyu clearly. Ye Chenyu just looked back indifferently, and finally entered the lounge and closed the frosted glass door. "Unexpectedly, they''re over there..." Brian''s face was full of haze. "There''s a policeman with such a mind?!" "According to the secret information given by the Bureau, the man''s file was blank before." Brian looked sideways at the speaker. "Undercover?" "Estimate!" The man bowed his head. Blaine''s mouth was slightly hooked, while the reporter''s cell phone rang. He picked it up, listened to the voice reported by the people inside, flashed a strange line at the bottom of his eyes, hung up the phone and whispered a few words in Brian''s ear. As he spoke, Blaine''s obvious corners of his mouth caught Sen''s cold smile. "If you lose, let him stay..." Brian said quietly. "And sell Thomas a favor!" Chapter 976 Time becomes painful while waiting for the result. The media waited anxiously in the rain. They looked at the time and felt that every second was too slow. "Elder martial brother, I don''t know why, I suddenly have no confidence..." Li Xiaoyue was a little restless. He hung his eyes and didn''t know how to put his hands. He swayed up and down and said, "I always felt that the last stage of the closing statement was not in place." Mo Shaochen didn''t speak, but with a soft smile in his mouth, he looked at Li Xiaoyue deeply. Li Xiaoyue said for a while, some incoherent. When she reacted, she was always talking, but when Mo Shaochen didn''t say a word, he suddenly raised his eyes and looked at him moment Her vision was captured by Mo Shaochen''s faint eyes with a soft smile. Just at a glance, she forgot her reaction, even forgot her anxiety just now, and just looked at him blankly. "When it''s over, don''t think about it..." Mo Shaochen''s voice came in time, "Xiao Yue, this is a taboo." Hearing this, Li Xiaoyue''s originally nervous mood collapsed in an instant. "After the decision is made, you can review your strengths and weaknesses..." Mo Shaochen''s voice is still calm, "but it''s not this waiting that makes you feel overwhelmed, okay?" Li Xiaoyue raised her lips and realized her mistake. "In this way, it will only make every court in the future hard." Mo Shaochen got up and went to pick up a cup of hot water for Li Xiaoyue. "Enjoy every trial, win or lose, and use your charm to conquer the profession of lawyer, huh?" Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen in a daze. After several seconds, he smiled slightly relieved and nodded. Time is spent in consumption. Compared with the anxiety of the people outside, the jury was locked in a room that could not contact the outside world and began a heated discussion. The lawyers of both sides have presented all kinds of evidence and reason, which makes people in a dilemma. However, no matter how difficult... In the end, there must be results. "This court declares..." the judge looked across the crowd and said with the final result of the jury, "in the end, with a vote of 17 to 16... The jury believes that the defense is guilty..." "Ow, Ow!" The judge''s words fell, and cheers came from the auditorium Then the judge''s hammer fell, "silence!" Li Xiaoyue didn''t listen carefully to what the judge said later. She didn''t even listen to what the defense was finally sentenced. But the smile from the corners of my mouth gradually spread Unlike the last trial in California, this time, Xu is involved in the international community. She has a responsibility that belongs to the Chinese people. Xu is for other reasons. The victory at this moment is not happiness, but... Relief. Turn around and don''t even need to find Li Xiaoyue looked at Ye Chenyu. At that moment, she realized that the relief in her heart was because of him! The smile on the corner of his mouth shows the happiness under a promise. Ye Chenyu looks at Li Xiaoyue''s smile and gradually his eyes become deep. He raised his hand and gave a thumbs up to Li Xiaoyue. The corners of his mouth picked up the evil radian in time. Serious people are the most beautiful, and women who work hard are more beautiful Her brilliance bloomed in the court, as if no one could suppress it. Ye Chenyu suddenly felt as if this bloom was the bath fire after Nirvana rebirth, burning everyone''s sight "Emma, it''s really a hanging heart. She can finally put it back in her stomach." "Yes, I feel that my heart is about to burst because of tension..." "I have only one idea at the moment. When I return home, I''ll go to the night market to eat his two bowls of fried sauce noodles... Tut Tut, I can''t help my saliva at the thought of Liu pangzi''s fried sauce noodles." "Yes, yes, I want to go too. I got off the plane and ran straight over..." "Hahaha..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Won the lawsuit and lived up to the purpose of coming this time. At the same time, everyone''s tight string suddenly loosened. Mo Shaochen leaned against the windowsill, holding a coffee cup in his hand, and looked at Li Xiaoyue surrounded by several people. The corners of his mouth smiled softly. "She is the most nervous this time." Ye Chenyu came over and leaned against the windowsill side by side with Mo Shaochen. "Yes." Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes, "I said, she has strong pressure resistance..." "Such a person often has the softest heart." Ye Chenyu''s voice was a little secluded, as if he said it and scattered his feeling. Mo Shaochen tilted his head and looked at Ye Chenyu carefully in his sight. "Do you like her?" "And you?" Ye Chenyu didn''t answer the question and looked at Mo Shaochen instead. Mo Shaochen smiled, "what do you think?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows and shrugged, "what do you think?" Mo Shaochen smiled, and ye Chenyu smiled at the right time Some things are true or false. In fact... It doesn''t matter. What matters is often the end. Who goes through the process and who gets the final result... Just! "Don''t argue, officer ye..." Chu Randian walked over excitedly. "We talked about going down to Chinatown for a hot pot... Do you want it?" Ye Chenyu and Mo Shaochen looked at each other, but they couldn''t bear to brush everyone''s mood and nodded one after another. "Is there any danger?" Mo Shaochen asked when Chu ran went to inform everyone. Ye Chenyu raised his hand and drank water. "Give me a word from the embassy. It shouldn''t be so brazen in Chinatown..." He looked at Mo Shaochen, "the case is over, and now the international community is paying attention to it. What happens to the whole lawyer team now, will it be counted on the other party?" "No one is so stupid!" Mo Shaochen laughed. "Yes." Mo Shaochen looked at Ye Chenyu''s arm. "I went at night. I have to drink and eat spicy food. Your arm..." "Nothing!" Ye Chenyu didn''t care. "I''m good at playing tricks!" "I see..." Mo Shaochen smiled deeply. "I haven''t paid the car repair fee yet." Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. Not only did he not feel that there was anything wrong with his behavior, but also he looked as if he was crying ¡­¡­ "Alas, I didn''t have a chance to see the combination of Xiaoyue and Shaochen... What a pity!" Jane Mo holds her mobile phone and looks at the news. She keeps muttering. Gu Beichen looked at the time. "We''re over there. It''s estimated that it''s tomorrow morning. You can still have time to share the post-war joy with them and have breakfast together." "That''s the only way..." Jian Mo angrily installed his mobile phone, took a drink with his water cup, leaned on Gu Beichen''s shoulder and said, "after fighting side by side with the person you like, will Xiao Yue be more reluctant to let go of Shaochen?" Gu Beichen listened, but answered faintly. The ink pupil fell in front, and the sword eyebrow frowned slightly He has his worries. If... Xiao Yue clearly knows that his feelings are good. What he is worried about now is Xiao Yue is confused and will swing between Shaochen and Chenyu! Chapter 977 At the dawn of the lantern, the intermittent rain finally stopped. The victory of the trial was won, and everyone was in a very relaxed mood. Mo Shaochen, the largest hotpot shop in Chinatown, directly packed a large box. "As soon as I smell it, I start to drool." Someone who has been poisoned by Western food for many days has an excited face. "Tut Tut, it''s very kind." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The people were full of gossip. Although there were not so many soup bottoms in China, there were only the most common spicy pot and three delicacies pot. Everyone felt particularly satisfied. Hot pot, beer In an excited and relaxed mood, for a while, everyone turned upside down, and the dishes on the table were in a mess. "Are you used to it?" Ye Chenyu glanced at Mo Shaochen and asked, "you should rarely have a chance to eat like this?" "Yes." Mo Shaochen answered, "very few." Family education and the people around him, such an unscrupulous way of eating, he is really very few. Occasionally, people in law firms eat together, and most don''t go to hot pot shops. If you have the chance to kill him, no one will choose to go to the hot pot shop! "So, capitalism can''t understand civilian life..." Ye Chenyu lazily picked up the beer can and planned to drink it. Mo Shaochen looked at him and didn''t speak. Ye Chenyu just handed the beer can to his mouth and didn''t lift it up. Finally, he sighed deeply and put it down. "I said, your lawyer depends on his mouth, not his eyes!" Mo Shaochen astringed his eyes. "Chenyu, what do you want to say?" "Huh?" Ye Chenyu is light. Mo Shaochen''s eyes fell on Li Xiaoyue''s face, who was having a happy chat with everyone. Her smile faded the uneasiness and inferiority complex of the past, and had already bloomed like fireworks. Ye Chenyu''s eyes fell on Mo Shaochen''s face and smiled, deep but shallow, "I hate talking to lawyers..." "Huh?" This time, Mo Shaochen didn''t understand. "Thinking too much, occupational disease..." Ye Chenyu took the water aside and motioned to Mo Shaochen, "simple questions, sometimes, just think about them..." Mo Shaochen narrowed his eyes slightly and then smiled. Bending over, he also took the water and touched Ye Chenyu. After drinking, he said, "but some problems are complicated, but we can''t think about them simply!" Ye Chenyu laughed and shook his head. He didn''t continue this topic! The atmosphere in the box became more and more lively as everyone ate and drank happily. It was almost nine o''clock in the evening when everyone left the hot pot shop. "It''s so comfortable..." someone opened his arms and smelled the unique air in the night after the rain. "Hey, are you interested in night excursions?" Someone timely proposed, "I came to London and went to court without taking a good look at the city..." "Well, well, I really want to go to London!" Chu ran was immediately excited, "I don''t know if I can meet my Mr. Right on the ferris wheel!" The man was ok with this. When several women in the same company heard about the ferris wheel, their eyes suddenly glowed with gold... They agreed one after another. Men naturally have no opinion. After all, the Thames is also worth appreciating. "Mo Bian, officer ye..." Chu ran, as the youngest, immediately became the messenger. "We have decided to go to the Thames. Are you two interested?" As she spoke, the little girl winked at Li Xiaoyue if she seemed to have nothing. "By the Thames River, Ferris wheel... Night view..." Chu Ran''s voice was ambiguous, and her eyes looked at Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu smartly, looking like you understand the rest. "Happy today, not to spoil everyone''s fun!" Mo Shaochen said with a light smile. Ye Chenyu shrugged and said he didn''t care. When the leaders of the two groups spoke, everyone naturally drove into the Thames. "Boss, they appeared on the Bank of the Thames. It seems that they will see London later." A black man in a suit said to the Bluetooth headset, holding high-power glasses in his hand, and the focus fell on Ye Chenyu and others in line. Thomas, with a cigar in his hand and a shady smile in his mouth, slowly opened his mouth, "I ruined a line at the beginning, but now I''m here. I can''t say it without entertainment?" He laughed. "Don''t they have a word? Do their best to be a host!" "Yes!" The black man answered, "I''ll arrange it!" "Yes." Thomas answered, "magnify things and do them." The black man listened and wondered, "Mr. Blaine''s side..." "Hum, want to take revenge by my hand?" Thomas sneered coldly, "I want to settle this old account, but I don''t intend to get angry at this time." The black man was silent and then responded, "I see." Thomas did not speak, hung up the phone, a pair of dark green eyes, with a ghostly cold light. When something happens, someone must carry the pot. If it''s bigger, whether it''s Brian or not, the police and the embassy may have to operate on him first ¡­¡­ Chu Ran is a little depressed. "What''s the matter, Ranran?" "Alas, sister Yue is sandwiched between officer ye and Mo''s argument..." Chu ran looks at the three people in the car in front of them and shakes her head and sighs. "After this circle, it''s estimated that she''s not in the mood to see this beautiful night scene. The light is like pins and needles!" "Your mother''s heart..." someone teased, "I don''t know if there is any ambiguity between the last three people, only..." "The basic situation between officer ye and Mo Bian!" The others finished in harmony and immediately laughed. "People without EQ are terrible..." Chu ran couldn''t stand rolling her eyes and decided to continue watching the scenery and ignore them. It takes about half an hour for London''s eyes to turn around Li Xiaoyue is really a little on pins and needles. Although Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu didn''t give her any pressure, they have never been relaxed. But in the narrow space, she just felt the atmosphere was strange. In addition, before the court session, ye Chenyu gave her faith to win, and Mo Shaochen said something to her Two things suddenly collided in my mind because I was in a small space with them. "Gu Zong and Mo Mo are coming these two days..." Li Xiaoyue thought he should find some topics. "Well, I''ll be there tomorrow morning." Mo Shaochen answered. Li Xiaoyue was a little surprised, "ah?!" "When having dinner, I received a text message from Beichen..." Mo Shaochen smiled. "Jane Mo should have sent it to you, too." Li Xiaoyue was stunned, "I didn''t look at my mobile phone..." With that, she took out her mobile phone. Sure enough, there was a text message from Jane Mo informing her that she would arrive tomorrow morning. Ye Chenyu''s arm was propped up at the bulge on one side, and his sight crossed Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue. In his eyes, an indescribable dark and complex emotion flashed quickly. "Here..." Mo Shaochen looked outside and opened the door of the car. After taking the lead in going down, the gentleman handed over his hand to hold Li Xiaoyue. "Thank you, senior brother." Li Xiaoyue took a lift car. Then, ye Chenyu followed him down. "Let''s wait for them over there." Mo Shaochen let go of Li Xiaoyue''s hand and pointed to the front. The three walked to the place Mo Shaochen said. Li Xiaoyue looked back at the lift car with different heights where the others were. "Be careful..." Suddenly, a nervous voice came. Li Xiaoyue turned back in an instant. Before he could react, he was pushed away and bumped into Mo Shaochen''s arms. Then she only heard a "poop" sound, and then First, the sound of metal collision hit the railing. Immediately after that, I heard a ''poof'', and then another bullet with Ye Chenyu''s blood also hit the railing Chapter 978 Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue didn''t react yet. They saw Ye Chenyu pull out the robbery very quickly and said in a heavy voice, "find concealment and inform others." Li Xiaoyue has been dull. In the face of such a situation, she doesn''t know how to react. After Mo Shaochen was in a trance, he pulled Li Xiaoyue and hid. The people around didn''t know what had happened, but after hearing the strange voice, everyone looked at each other. But soon, someone saw the robbery in Ye Chenyu''s hand and heard a scream of "ah -" and the scene was in chaos. From beginning to end, the black man with high-power glasses has been watching the situation in the London eye. "His vigilance and reaction are still so strong." The black voice said calmly, and the telescope fell on Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue. "He can''t be alone. Mr. Thomas explained that someone must follow him!" That way, things will lead to Brian. "But now the scene is too chaotic..." the voice came from the Bluetooth headset. "Moreover, their people have begun to go down!" The black man looked at London''s eyes and sneered: "this is the best opportunity..." The chaotic scene will disturb Ye Chenyu''s judgment. He... Doesn''t look at others. "Sniper ready..." the black voice made people feel ghostly from beginning to end. "Sniper ready!" The black man''s sight fell into a position. Relatively speaking, it was an excellent hiding place. The corner of his mouth was slightly hooked. "Unexpectedly, the lawyer''s alertness was also very good..." he paused. "Usually, I don''t encounter too many such situations, that is, I have been trained?" "The two debaters are together..." the black voice came slowly, "then two together!" "Impact cover, snipers looking for opportunities!" The words of the black people fell, and the voice of the action commander came out lingran. From the earphone came the response of all parties. As a local Mafia in Britain, for these outlaws, dealing with a few special police and mouth lawyers is just like a chicken. The banks of the Thames were in chaos, and the sound of police sirens was heard in the distance. "Brother Jing!" Qiao Rui''s gun was already in his hand, and he was back-to-back with Ye Chenyu. He looked around sharply, "how are you?" "Shot, nothing..." Ye Chenyu''s voice calmed to cold, "where are the others?" "All under the protection of the group." Qiao Rui was also very calm and saw through the chaotic crowd. "The goal is mo Bian and Li Bian?" "Who knows?" Ye Chenyu''s voice was filled with a sneer. The two bullets just shot seem to target Shaochen and Xiaoyue. However, according to the distance and his reaction, he will push two people away, and the inertia after the impact... He can''t avoid one, but he can''t avoid the second. "The attack started..." Ye Chenyu''s words were still very calm. He suddenly made a gesture with Qiao Rui. Because there are too many problems involved abroad, as foreign police, they can''t shoot unless they have to! This greatly affected Ye Chenyu''s actions "They are too passive!" Mo Shaochen frowned and looked anxiously at Ye Chenyu''s direction. "What about that?" Li Xiaoyue''s voice trembled slightly, "the court is over, and the other party is unscrupulous at this moment?" "It''s not necessarily the other person..." Mo Shaochen looked around. "It''s possible that some people want to make use of the topic." "What do you mean?" Mo Shaochen took back his sight. Under the tense atmosphere, his face hasn''t changed much. He looked at Li Xiaoyue, whose body was shaking uncontrollably, and his eyes were deep, "it means..." Mo Shaochen paused. Originally, Li Xiaoyue was too nervous. When he stopped, the cells of the whole body were about to burst because of tension. If she hadn''t been in the second-hand bookstore that day, she would have experienced a little thrilling now. I''m afraid her legs would be weak again. "It means," Mo Shaochen smiled at Li Xiaoyue with a stable smile, "I''ll protect you anyway." "..." Li Xiaoyue widened her eyes and looked at Mo Shaochen''s mouth opening again and again. She just felt that a string in her brain broke instantly, making her unable to think. Feeling that Li Xiaoyue was not so nervous, Mo Shaochen looked not far away. Ye Chenyu gestured to him and held Li Xiaoyue''s hand slightly tight Just when another gunshot came, Mo Shaochen almost fell again with Ye Chenyu''s gesture. While holding Li Xiaoyue, he got up, rotated and hid behind the stone pillar. Then a bullet ''PIU'' disappeared into the place where they had just squatted. Everything happens in a critical moment. If you hesitate for almost one second, unexpected damage can occur. Li Xiaoyue reacted. She just felt that her heart was about to lose its capacity under such stimulation. "Just..." Li Xiaoyue couldn''t breathe, and he couldn''t speak completely. At the moment, Mo Shaochen said he was not nervous. It was all a lie. However, the war of words in court for so many years and the subsequent danger. In addition, under such circumstances, there is Li Xiaoyue around. Even if he has any thoughts, he is calm to give people stability on the surface. The two sides have fought, but the difference in the number of people and the disparity in the firepower of weapons make ye Chenyu and them tied hands and feet. "The two of them cooperated well..." the black man frowned. Lawyers will know that some of the police gestures are not strange, but Mo Shaochen seems to know ye Chenyu''s gestures very well. Not only that, but even in the first time, they can cooperate seamlessly. "This man is really a character!" The person on one side looked slightly dignified, "I can cooperate with the woman in court, and now I can cooperate with the police... Either I''m too calm, too smart, or..." There was a cold sneer on the corner of his mouth. "If you can, it''s good to take it for yourself..." the black voice was still calm. "There is a lack of such a lawyer in the team!" "I''m afraid it''s not easy to take him in." The black man pulled down the corner of his mouth. "Don''t they have a saying... Called ''where there is a will, there is a way''?" People on one side didn''t understand the meaning of this. Naturally, he wouldn''t ask what it meant at this time. "Leave the man..." the black voice suddenly became overcast, and his eyes fell on Li Xiaoyue held by Mo Shaochen. His voice just fell, and the fire in all directions has been fully opened The black man put down his telescope and spread his hands. People on one side don''t need to say more. They have put a long-range sniper gun in the black''s hand Chapter 979 The air was filled with the strange smell of gunpowder and blood, which made people unable to breathe. The panic had already stopped. In the open place, ye Chenyu and others were completely exposed outside "Brother Chen, there are snipers!" Qiao Rui''s arm was scratched with blood by a bullet. The blood dyed the shirt on Ye Chenyu red. I don''t know whether it''s his own or Qiao Rui''s. His forehead is overflowing with fine beads of sweat. He has years of undercover experience. At this moment, he clearly knows that the other party''s purpose is probably not simple The other side''s attack was fierce, and the sound of bullets colliding with various objects was filled with strangeness. "Be careful!" Suddenly, ye Chenyu shouted, and the man took a swift step in the direction of Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue "Brother Chen!" "Ah --" Qiao Rui shouted. At the right time, Li Xiaoyue''s scream came when Mo Shaochen suddenly pushed him away. When Li Xiaoyue didn''t have time to respond, even the moment when she crossed Mo Shaochen''s shoulder blade, her body was pushed away again. The sound of a ''Bell'' was heard, and the bullet sank into the steel handrail behind. Li Xiaoyue was completely confused. His face was very white. He didn''t know how to react. You can only let Ye Chenyu roll up and down on the ground with her in his arms, and you can hear the sound of bullets hitting the ground The sound of the police car whistle was getting closer and closer. When Li Xiaoyue''s head was'' buzzing ''by the almost ear close gunshot, the brake sound came sharply. Then, Li Xiaoyue didn''t know what happened. She just stared at Ye Chenyu, who was "pressed" by the air, but in an instant, her eyes were dyed red by the blood overflowing from his mouth. "Ye... Ye..." Li Xiaoyue couldn''t say a complete word in his broken voice, "Ye Chenyu..." Ye Chenyu''s breath became short. A lot of blood gushed out of his mouth. He wanted to swallow it back. Don''t scare Li Xiaoyue However, in the process of swallowing, he only felt that his inner abdomen turned over for a while. He couldn''t control it, and a mouthful of blood gushed out! Ye Chenyu almost tilted his head at the same time, but it was too late. The smell of fishy, sweet and hot was wet, and half of it fell on Li Xiaoyue''s face. Li Xiaoyue can''t describe that feeling at all At this moment, she only felt afraid, not to blood, but to Ye Chenyu! "You..." Li Xiaoyue cried instantly, "Ye Chenyu, how are you?" Looking at Li Xiaoyue, who was so fragile that he might not be able to breathe, ye Chenyu pulled at the corners of his mouth, "too much blood... Let go... Let go..." "When... Ah!" Before Li Xiaoyue finished speaking, ye Chenyu couldn''t support it. His hand on the ground was soft, and the man had been lying on her. "Ye Chenyu, ye Chenyu..." Li Xiaoyue shouted in panic. Her men consciously wanted to touch Ye Chenyu''s body, but they were afraid of his injury. They could only shout anxiously, "Ye Chenyu, ye Chenyu... How are you?! Ye Chenyu..." No one answered! Li Xiaoyue''s crying eyes were blurred. With the blood vomited by Ye Chenyu, there was a penetrating breath. "You... Don''t scare me..." Li Xiaoyue''s voice choked and trembled, "Ye Chenyu... You..." "I... haven''t... Died yet..." Ye Chenyu''s voice came weakly, "can you... Don''t cry..." Li Xiaoyue not only didn''t dislike Ye Chenyu''s "teasing", but instantly laughed. Even if it''s not laughter at all, it''s more ugly than crying. "Ye Chenyu..." Li Xiaoyue suddenly burst into emotion, and tears poured out uncontrollably. "Are you crazy? What''s the relationship between my immortality and you? You use your body to protect me..." Ye Chenyu supported his body slightly, but he had no strength at all, "don''t worry... I''m fine..." His voice was extremely weak, but he still looked at Li Xiaoyue, "it''s my professional instinct... Um... To protect people''s lives... Higher than... Everything..." At last, ye Chenyu''s voice was the same as that of mosquitoes. Li Xiaoyue wants to scold him. What bullshit professional instinct? However, the words in the mouth can only be replaced by choking and trembling under fear. "Chenyu..." Mo Shaochen had come at the right time. While looking at Ye Chenyu anxiously, he looked at Li Xiaoyue. Seeing that her face was full of blood, he was shocked, "what''s the matter with you?" Li Xiaoyue cried and shook his head. "Elder martial brother, he... He shed a lot of blood!" "Brother Chen..." "Call an ambulance!" "Get on the police car and go directly to the hospital..." Flustered voices came one after another, followed by Qiao Rui and others. Li Xiaoyue only felt that his body was light and ye Chenyu had been carried away. Li Xiaoyue was helped up by Mo Shaochen and Chu ran and got into the police car together. The faces of all the people were very bad. After soul stirring, they couldn''t think about it one by one. "Mo Bian, are you hurt too?!" Chu ran suddenly screamed with wide eyes. Li Xiaoyue''s "brush" glanced away, and the target was a large amount of blood from Mo Shaochen''s shoulder blade. Mo Shaochen was not as alert as ye Chenyu and could only block her with his body by instinct! He said: anyway, he will protect her Tears fell on his face again. The hot made Li Xiaoyue forget to think. "I''m fine. Just go down to the hospital and deal with it." Mo Shaochen still had a steady smile on his face, even though his face had already lost his blood color. Royal London hospital. At night, because of accidents, it becomes particularly dignified. The incident, involving all aspects, has attracted the attention of both the media and the public, and even at a greater level. Li Xiaoyue sat sluggishly in the waiting area, and his sight fell to the ground, motionless. "Sister Yue, do you... Want to deal with it first!" Chu ran asked anxiously. Looking at the blood on her face and body, she was frightened. Ye Chenyu was the most serious one in his hand this time. When Mo Shaochen came down, the bullet also penetrated his shoulder blade. Qiao Rui was only scratched by the bullet... Everyone else was fine. The main thing is that the firepower is all on the three of them! "Chu ran..." "Yes!" Li Xiaoyue looked at her numbly, "they... All, they will be all right... Right?!" Chu dyed the corner of his mouth and nodded firmly, "Mo Bian and officer ye will be all right!" Li Xiaoyue listened and took back his sight again. His mind was empty and there was no way to think, even... He didn''t dare to think. The blood on Mo Shaochen''s shoulder blade and the blood sprayed on her face by Ye Chenyu I will protect you! I''m a professional instinct The two voices instantly collided in Li Xiaoyue''s mind, and then they all turned scarlet. It''s all her They''re all hurt because of her! Li Xiaoyue curled up uncontrollably because of trembling, and even his lips began to turn white. They got hurt because of her... It''s all her! Chapter 980 The gears of the plane rubbed against the ground and there was a roar Jian Mo looked bleary at the direction of the waiting hall through the small window and blinked weakly, "so early... Xiao Yue, they probably haven''t got up yet?" After all, the court ended yesterday and won. It''s not necessary to revel late at night?! "Yes." Gu Beichen turned on his cell phone. It shows that there are several text messages while there are missed calls. Gu Beichen first looked at those who didn''t answer the phone, including Cen Lanxi, Susan, and some people who didn''t know he was on the plane with Jane mo. Xiao Jing reported the progress of the acquisition, and another one came from Mo Shaochen. Shaochen: we are all in the Royal Hospital near Thames. You and Jane Mo got off the plane. Settle her first and come here. "What''s the matter?" Jane Mo said, and the people had gathered together. Gu Beichen didn''t receive his mobile phone and didn''t intend to hide anything After all, they are going to stay in Britain for a long time. They can''t hide what''s going to happen. "Hospital?!" Jane Mo was puzzled at first, and then looked at Gu Beichen, "what happened? Did they..." Gu Beichen shook his head. "Wait, go straight to see what''s going on." Jane Mo nodded solemnly. At the right time, the plane stopped steadily. After Gu Beichen and Jian Mo got off the plane, they went directly to the parking lot Here, Emperor''s branch released the car in advance. They went to the storage desk to get the car key. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo are familiar with the city of London. After all, both of them have been here for a long time. They didn''t stop because they were worried about whether there was an accident, and they were not in the mood to have breakfast and drove directly to the Royal Hospital But even so, on the way, Gu Beichen found a convenience store and bought Jian Mo water and sandwiches. "Eat more or less," Gu Beichen started the car. "I don''t know what''s going on later. Your body can''t stand it." Jian Mo made a soft ''um'' sound and began to eat without knowing what to eat. She has no willful capital now. Her body has been overdrawn by herself. She still wants to go further with ah Chen. Naturally, she can''t continue to consume. When she arrived at the hospital, Jane Mo forced her sandwich into her stomach. They asked the medical guide and went directly to the operation floor. Just out of the elevator, Jian Mo saw a chair not far away. Li Xiaoyue''s face was dry blood. He sat there sluggishly and couldn''t help but dilate his pupils Regardless of Beichen, Jian Mo hurried over, "Xiao Yue?!" Li Xiaoran looked at me with a worried look, "Li Xiaoran didn''t shake his head mechanically......" As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she put her heart back into her stomach slowly. "What happened? Why so much... So much blood!" Li Xiaoyue''s eyes trembled. Maybe it was because seeing the most familiar and intimate person, her nose was sour and her eyes turned red in an instant. "I''m just slightly bruised. It''s all ye Chenyu''s blood..." Li Xiaoyue''s voice trembled badly. "What should I do? He hasn''t come out since he entered the operating room last night!" Jian Mo stared again in amazement and wanted to ask what had happened, but Li Xiaoyue was unstable and steady. "Mo Shaochen was also injured..." hot tears spilled over his eyes. "He was shot in the shoulder blade because of me!" Jian Mo looked at Li Xiaoyue''s withered haggard, leaned forward slightly and held her in her arms, "don''t worry, it will be all right... It will be all right, huh?" "Yes!" Li Xiaoyue answered softly, fragile as if a touch would break the withered grass. Gu Beichen converged on the two women and walked forward "Hello, Mr. Gu. I''m Qiao Rui, deputy leader of the action team." Qiao Rui introduced himself first. "What happened?" Gu Beichen asked. Qiao Rui''s face was dignified. "Most people were just frightened, and some were just skin injuries..." he said, his face becoming more dignified. "It''s hard to argue that the shoulder blade bullet was burning through the half of the body. In addition, it took a long time. Some blood was lost and the operation was successful, but people haven''t woke up yet." "Where''s Chenyu?" Gu Beichen asked. Qiao Rui was slightly surprised. He didn''t expect Gu Beichen to call ye Chenyu so kind. "The situation is not very optimistic!" Qiao Rui''s eyebrows were all twisted. "On the one hand, he lost too much blood. He was shot three times... The doctor said that the gun on his leg was ok, but he hurt his lung lobe in his abdomen, and another shot was near his heart." Gu Beichen frowned, "have you been in for a few hours?" "Almost seven hours." Gu Beichen nodded slightly and said nothing more. The medical capital standard of the Royal Hospital is very high. From the medical level, Gu Beichen doesn''t worry In fact, he is not so worried as long as it does not endanger his life. Chenyu has been undercover for so many years. His survival consciousness is instinctive... He won''t give up as long as he is given a chance. But it''s a lie to say that you should not worry at all. Gu Beichen inquired about everyone again. He heard that the embassy had begun to deal with this matter, and he didn''t say anything... He just inquired about the progress with the local police left behind. Jian Mo has been comforting Li Xiaoyue. When Chu ran bought breakfast, she saw her holding Li Xiaoyue to the bathroom for cleaning. "I''ll watch here first. You go and have a rest." Gu Beichen looked at Qiao Rui''s tired face, his arm was still wrapped in gauze, and his voice was indisputable. "I''ve had a rest, and I''m here with you..." Chu ran handed Qiao Rui a breakfast. Qiao Rui didn''t show any affectation. After eating three or two people, he went to find a place to have a rest. The next situation is still unknown. He was born as a special police officer. It is clear that it is important to catch the opportunity to rest. After Qiao Rui walked for more than half an hour, the light in the operating room finally went out. Li Xiaoyue''s nerves became nervous and sat there, completely afraid to move... I''m afraid it''s bad news to wait. "Sister Yue, officer ye will be all right..." Chu ran muttered in her voice. Jane Mo also nodded and then looked at Gu Beichen. With him, Jane Mo''s heart can be a little more stable. "Doctor, how is the patient?" Gu Beichen''s voice is so indifferent that his English is calm. The doctor''s face was calm. "The operation was very smooth. If the patient had no fever and other symptoms within 24 hours, the dangerous period would have passed..." As soon as they heard this, they were relieved. "The patient has been sent to the intensive care unit from the special channel. You can go and have a look later!" The doctor said that, nodded with Gu Beichen, turned around and left with the nurse who came out with him. "He''s all right... He''s all right..." Li Xiaoyue was nervous and relaxed in an instant. The mood that had just been calmed collapsed again Chapter 981 Li Xiaoyue looked at Ye Chenyu, who was wearing an instrument, and his mouth fell. His mood was very complicated. "Xiao Yue, would you like to have a rest first?" Jane Mo said anxiously, "you haven''t slept all night, your nerves have been tight, and your body can''t bear it." "Girl, I can''t sleep..." Li Xiaoyue sat down on the sofa. Jian Mo sighed, "wait a minute, Shaochen wakes up and needs to be taken care of. Ye Chenyu also needs to be taken care of. If you are guilty, you should rest well... To take care of them." Li Xiaoyue pulled the corners of his mouth astringently, "I know, but I still can''t sleep." Jane Mo knew that it was no use persuading, so she simply stopped persuading. "I''ll see Shaochen." Gu Beichen opened his mouth at the right time. After his sight crossed Li Xiaoyue, he nodded with Jian Mo and left. The door of ICU observation room was gently closed. In a small space, only Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue were left. Jane Mo didn''t speak. Li Xiaoyue was not in the mood to say anything at the moment. They were so silent. Jian Mo knows that Li Xiaoyue just needs her company at the moment... When she wants to say something or straightens out what she wants to say, she will naturally say it. She didn''t ask, just quietly accompanied. Gu Beichen pushes open the door of the sick room. The doctor is inspecting the room. He glanced at Mo Shaochen on the eye bed. He was awake, although he looked very weak. After Gu Beichen''s examination, he asked about doctor Mo Shaochen. He heard that as long as you pay attention to the wound and don''t worsen, it''s basically OK. "After a life and death experience, how do you feel?" Gu Beichen fished out a chair and sat down by the hospital bed. Mo Shaochen pulled the corners of his mouth, "I sympathize with you..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "It''s a bad taste!" Mo Shaochen''s voice was weak, "how''s Chenyu?" "He has strong vitality. When he gets off the operating table, he should be fine." Gu Beichen replied. Mo Shaochen thought of last night''s thrilling, and for a moment, he frowned again. After he blocked a shot for Xiaoyue, he fired continuously. If Chenyu didn''t pull Xiaoyue upside down, he and Xiaoyue would be finished! Thinking of this, Mo Shaochen''s obvious look dimmed. "We are always too alert..." Mo Shaochen''s voice was remorseful. "I just talked to the police personnel waiting for the operation and said that it might be the other party of the lawsuit?" Gu Beichen light Yi, ink pupil timely becomes deep and bottomless. Mo Shaochen shook his head. "I don''t know..." he paused, "but on the surface, the main target is Xiao Yue, and it''s me." "Surface?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "it means that the other party''s target may also be Chenyu, but you and Xiaoyue were used as cover?!" Mo Shaochen shook his head again. "I guessed that the situation was too chaotic at that time, and I didn''t seriously experience such a thing..." Gu Beichen answered and didn''t continue to ask, "you and Chenyu can''t suffer in vain!" The voice of Yin measurement was filled with awe inspiring anger, and even the indifferent handsome face was shrouded in haze. "It depends on the situation," Mo Shaochen said in a weaker voice. "Chenyu has worked so hard this time. I don''t want him to be unable to be promoted because of external reasons." "I''ll deal with it..." Gu Beichen said, looking at Mo Shaochen deeply. "What''s your personal opinion of Chen Yu after spending so long with him?" Mo Shaochen looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously, as if he was a little strange about his problem. "I don''t know why..." Mo Shaochen said slightly, "I have an inexplicable sense of tacit understanding with him!" "Huh?" Gu Beichen is light. Mo Shaochen thought of Ye Chenyu''s gesture last night. In fact, he didn''t fully understand it, but he didn''t know why. His first reaction was to do it Looking at Mo Shaochen''s tangled appearance, Gu Beichen didn''t ask deeply, "you have a good rest. I''ll follow up the following things..." "Yes." Mo Shaochen restrained his mind and watched Gu Beichen get up, but he thought about the question he had just asked. "Beichen!" Gu Beichen just stopped his hand pulling the doorknob and turned to look at Mo Shaochen "You seem to care about the relationship between me and Chenyu?" Mo Shaochen was asking, but the tone was obviously affirmative. He is a lawyer with keen observation. He is also Beichen''s cousin. He grew up together. It is clear that he will not ask questions that are not directly related for no reason. "He is a person I value more," Gu Beichen said indifferently. "You are the criminal defense, he is the police, and you will have a lot of intersection in the future..." The implication is that if he feels good, he hopes Mo Shaochen can make deep friends. Mo Shaochen smiled, "I see." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and left immediately. With Gu Beichen''s arrival, it is obvious that there is more pressure on the embassy. Coupled with the influence of the Dragon owl on the British road, Gu Beichen basically found out each other''s origin that night. Obviously, it''s a lawsuit. In fact... When ye Chenyu was undercover, he brought a deal, so that the local Mafia who originally shipped the goods didn''t get the money and the goods were deducted! Gu Beichen''s temperament is very short-sighted, and other things are easy to discuss. However, hurting the people he cares about often makes him uncomfortable, which is not in line with his current personal design! Of course, in Britain, he doesn''t need to do these dark things himself Mo Shaochen woke up and ye Chenyu''s operation was successful, which made everyone a little relieved. In the afternoon, when Li Yue was accompanied by Jane, he calmed her down With the arrival of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, it can be said that both the protection team and the lawyer team seem to have found the backbone. There''s no way. A god level figure can make people feel at ease even if he doesn''t do anything. Li Xiaoyue slept directly until dawn the next morning. Was awakened by a nightmare In the dream, she saw Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu looking at her with blood all over. She was afraid and wanted to see their injuries, but when the talent came to her, they disappeared Then she stepped into the air and fell into the abyss that could not be seen to the end and shrouded in clouds. "Had a nightmare?" Jane Mo is quite calm about the tragic discovery of Li Xiaoyue. Well, there are many main experiences! "How are they?" Li Xiaoyue''s breath was not stable, so he asked tremblingly. "Shaochen has rested for a day and looks much better..." Jian Mo said with a smile, "Ye Chenyu has also passed the dangerous period!" "I''ll see them..." Li Xiaoyue said uneasily and opened the quilt. When the talent put on his slippers, Chu ran hurriedly opened the door and ran in, "sister Yue, officer Ye woke up..." Li Xiaoyue and Jian mo were stunned. "Officer Ye is really awesome!" Chu ran was so happy that she didn''t know why. "The doctors said that he had strong vitality!" Li Xiaoyue smiled at the corner of his mouth and didn''t say anything. He hurried out Behind him came Chu Ran''s anxious voice, "sister Yue, officer Ye has been transferred to the VIP ward, right next door to Mo Bian..." Jian Mo didn''t chase Li Xiaoyue, but just stood there and looked at Chu ran with a look of schadenfreude on her face. "Mrs. Gu, you..." Chu ran felt Jian Mo looking at her and asked with some numbness, "... Why are you looking at me like this?" "You seem to be looking forward to Xiao Yue''s hurry to find officer ye?" Jane Mo asked, as if she didn''t intend to perfunctory me. Chu ran smiled, her eyes turned smartly, and said, "just now I joked with officer Qiao Rui that he protected sister Yue so much and planned to ask sister Yue how to repay him!" "What did he say?" Jane Mo asked subconsciously. Chu ran immediately smiled more brightly. Imitating Ye Chenyu''s evil charm, she raised her eyebrows and said, "let her promise each other by example... How about it?" Chapter 982 Jane Mo''s pupils dilated and suddenly smelled the smell of gossip in the air. "Chu ran," Jian Mo stepped forward and his face was full of gossip, "well... Did you encounter anything special here these days?" "Huh?" Chu ran didn''t react for a moment. After leaving her mouth, Jane Mo asked bluntly, "I mean, between Xiao Yue and officer ye..." Chu Ran''s eyes sparkled with excitement as soon as she heard it. She picked the key points and talked about it briefly. The more Jane heard the last, the more confused she became. "Mrs. Gu, who do you think sister Yue can finally get together with?" Chu ran asked curiously, "you and sister Yue are best friends. You should know what she thinks!" "..." Jane Mo opened her body a little distance, thought and shook her head. Chu ran was looking forward to it. Seeing Jian Mo shaking her head, she suddenly collapsed, "ah... You don''t know!" "Let''s listen and we''ll know..." Jian Mo raised her eyebrows, motioned to Xia Chu ran and walked to the VIP ward. Li Xiaoyue hurried to Ye Chenyu''s ward. There was no way to treat the patient who just woke up. Everyone was full of gossip. "Team ye, I''m so lucky to be strong this time... Later, the special police team, who doesn''t believe me, who is anxious with me!" The special police officer named Daqiang looked adored, "although we all train our sharpness, yours is too high." "Ye team is born, you can''t envy..." "Go, go!" Daqiang offended the people around him, but his face was really admiring Ye Chenyu. "But officer ye, you look at the big and small wounds... It feels like either a knife wound or a gun wound. Have you been trained from childhood?" A lawyer asked curiously. Ye Chenyu just smiled, "well, it''s all right, practice reaction..." he said, and he looked at Daqiang. Suddenly, everyone ''ha ha'' laughed. No one can see that although Ye Chenyu is weak at the moment, he is still in the mood to joke. It is estimated that there is no big problem. It''s just that the gauze wrapped around him is a little seeping. "Officer ye, I heard from the doctor that you were shot in the arm before!" A lawyer suddenly asked, "it''s a new wound, but it''s not caused by the attack... When were you shot?!" When he asked, people who didn''t know about it were stunned. Qiao Rui also frowned, "what''s going on?" After he asked, his eyes fell on Ye Chenyu''s face. Li Xiaoyue opened her mouth slightly surprised. Instinctively, she rushed into the second-hand bookstore that day. Ye Chenyu still had his ruffian smile on his face. Although his face was pale, his eyes were as dark, steady and sharp as Falcon hunting. "Just..." Ye Chenyu just opened his mouth and tilted his head. He happened to see Li Xiaoyue from the gap of a group of people around him. "When I went out before, I encountered some trouble." "Eh, Li Bian, you wake up..." Ye Chenyu''s words just fell. A lawyer happened to see Li Xiaoyue. The crowd looked over one after another and saw that there was something wrong with her look. They looked at each other "knowing it". "That..." Qiao Rui said, "brother Yu just woke up. Let''s not disturb here. I''ll have breakfast. Who''s going?" "I''ll go..." "I, I, I!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Everyone rushed to answer the voice, and then they dispersed like birds and animals. In such a large VIP ward, there were only Ye Chenyu lying in bed and Li Xiaoyue by the door. Li Xiaoyue just stood where she was and didn''t move. There was no tension with Ye Chenyu in the past. "Be the door god for me?" Ye Chenyu asked with a funny eyebrow. Li Xiaoyue frowned slightly and opened his mouth. At last, he glanced aside and muttered, "you are a patient. I won''t care about you!" "Huh?" Ye Chenyu didn''t hear clearly. The doctor said, "how about leaving the end of the bed?" "I can''t die..." Ye Chenyu looked indifferent. I''m used to getting hurt, even worse than this several times. The doctor said he had tenacious vitality, which was entirely because he dared not be tenacious... He had too many things to let go. Li Xiaoyue was so bored that ye Chenyu frowned, "can''t you be serious?!" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows, looked at Li Xiaoyue''s awkward appearance, smiled and asked, "I was scared that night?" "If you''re a normal person, you''ll be scared, okay?" After Li Xiaoyue said angrily, he said, "Ye Chenyu, everyone''s life is important. You can protect me by yourself. I''m very grateful, but I don''t agree." "Different responsibilities..." Ye Chenyu said casually, "it''s the same reason that even if you know there is danger, the lawsuit must be fought to the end." "That can''t let you sacrifice your life again and again!" Li Xiaoyue was annoyed. "You were shot in the bookstore that day, weren''t you?" Ye Chenyu didn''t refute. He had been heard and the lawsuit was over. In fact, whether he knew it or not was a thing of the past Seeing that he didn''t speak, Li Xiaoyue became more and more angry. Even, thinking of the situation that day, he was indifferent and quarreled with her, ultimately to hide his gunshot wound His nose was suddenly sour, and Li Xiaoyue sneered at himself, "Ye Chenyu, no one is worth another''s life to protect again and again." "Who does things, is it worth it or not?" Ye Chenyu frowned slightly. "For what?" Li Xiaoyue''s eyes were slightly red. "Gunshot wounds don''t go to the hospital, and even do other things to cover them in order to hide... Also, on the operating table, you may not get down in eight or nine hours... Leave forever!" Ye Chenyu looked at Li Xiaoyue''s excited look. She knew she was frightened and let her vent. Li Xiaoyue''s eyes were gradually filled with a thin layer of water mist. "Have you ever thought about what would happen to me if you couldn''t get down to the operating table?" She sneered, "you covered up the gunshot wound in the bookstore for fear of my guilt... Aren''t you afraid that if you die, will I feel guilty all my life?" "So I got off the operating table and woke up..." Ye Chenyu answered. Li Xiaoyue was stunned. The originally rising anger was suddenly extinguished by Ye Chenyu''s words. Ye Chenyu looked at Li Xiaoyue''s dull look. There was no sharpness in the court. He couldn''t help but put a wicked smile on the corners of his mouth. "Li Xiaoyue, how do you know if it''s worth it?" He said softly, raised his eyebrows and looked at Li Xiaoyue deeply, "maybe I have a purpose?!" "For what purpose?" Li Xiaoyue asked subconsciously. Ye Chenyu didn''t answer immediately. He just looked at Li Xiaoyue for a while and slowly said, "let''s make a promise with your own life... How about it?" Chapter 983 Mo Shaochen had planned to enter the ward and stopped He looked slightly at Ye Chenyu''s ward. From his angle, he could not see inside. Naturally, he could not be seen inside. Beichen took Jian Mo and them to breakfast. When he heard that ye Chenyu woke up, he came to have a look. When ye Chenyu heard this, he didn''t think of it. Slightly frown, Mo Shaochen''s face has a faint emotion across He didn''t know whether it was the perennial calm forbearance or what. Maybe he knows. Just at this moment, he can''t go clear! Don''t stand alone in the corridor. The soft sunshine projected in from the corridor and pulled Mo Shaochen''s shadow long. He didn''t move, didn''t go in, and didn''t leave As if, like Ye Chenyu, waiting for Li Xiaoyue''s answer. Li Xiaoyue frowned at Ye Chenyu and wanted to see whether he was joking or something? However, his expression seemed to be joking, but he seemed to see seriousness in his eyes "Ye Chenyu," said Li Xiaoyue, holding back his anger and uneasiness, "if you''re joking, you don''t need an answer." Ye Chenyu''s smile deepened a little and didn''t say whether he was joking or not. "If you''re not kidding..." Li Xiaoyue paused and looked down slightly. Ye Chenyu''s eyes became deep at the right time. He asked this sentence. In fact, it was a joke. But after asking, he wanted to know... How would she answer?! Li Xiaoyue pondered for a long time. When the air became slow because of waiting, she raised her eyes. "Sorry, I can''t promise you!" Li Xiaoyue''s voice is very light, but he is firm. "The life of two people should not be the beginning of being moved by guilt. No one can stand the long years of such a life." Ye Chenyu didn''t speak, just waiting for Li Xiaoyue to continue. "You saved me, I was moved and even angry..." Li Xiaoyue gradually calmed down. "You can let me do a lot of things to calm my guilt, but you can''t do it alone." "Because you don''t love? Because you don''t like..." Ye Chenyu''s voice showed a trace of weakness after injury, "or because... Do you have someone you like?" "Yes, I have people I like!" Li Xiaoyue smiled at the corner of his mouth, "I like this person. I use the whole past... I think it will be consumed slowly, and I think I will shrink back because I don''t deserve it..." Li Xiaoyue pulled down the corner of his mouth with self mockery, "but I''m unconsciously trying to stand beside him!" Ye Chenyu''s eyes gradually deepened, "Shaochen?" "You know, don''t you?" Li Xiaoyue took a deep breath, "Ye Chenyu, maybe I can''t stand by him all my life, but I won''t make do with my life because I can''t stand..." After so much experience, she is actually very indifferent. Even if she can''t be together, even if she is alone... She doesn''t want to hold her past and live with another person trembling. Hurt others and wronged yourself. "You are moved by my guilt. Isn''t it... Your hope for Shaochen?" Ye Chenyu asked sharply. Li Xiaoyue quietly looked at Ye Chenyu and didn''t answer in a hurry. They just looked at each other and couldn''t tell what they felt. It''s as if ye Chenyu is questioning, and it''s as if he''s letting Li Xiaoyue see himself "Once, I thought it was... Love under worship." Li Xiaoyue smiled, although a little bitter, "but you don''t understand... When a person is at the lowest point and unbearable, the complex emotion towards a person." Afraid that he looks down on himself, I hope he can stay around and encourage himself, and tear between want and don''t want That kind of hesitation, that kind of longing to fear, has not experienced, and no one can say it''s easy. "You even don''t understand the happiness and motivation of working hard for one person." Li Xiaoyue gently fanned the lower eyelash feather, and the self mockery at the corner of his mouth became deeper, "painful and happy..." "Then why don''t you confess directly to him?" Ye Chenyu asked again. Li Xiaoyue inhaled and lowered his eyes, "because I don''t want him to be the same as I am facing you now..." How long can the feeling of guilt and sympathy last? When all good things are broken, what else can be left?! Silence. In the ward, Li Xiaoyue stopped talking and ye Chenyu didn''t speak. The original "joke" became dignified and hurt whose heart? Who feels bad again Only each other know! Secretly mocking himself, ye Chenyu sighed slightly. "You just woke up and have a good rest..." Li Xiaoyue restrained his mind and looked at Ye Chenyu. "I''ll come and see you later." The words fell, and without waiting for ye Chenyu to speak, Li Xiaoyue had turned and walked outside the ward Whether it''s to escape or to relieve himself... Li Xiaoyue just wants to be alone for a while. But when she left the ward and her eyes fell on the next door, she gradually stopped. After several deep breaths, Li Xiaoyue went to Mo Shaochen''s ward. "Dong Dong!" "Enter!" The voice was calm and elegant. A word had an unspeakable magic for Li Xiaoyue, who had just revealed his heart at the moment. He pushed the door and went in. Mo Shaochen stood in front of the window in sick clothes. The sun fell on him in pieces, some hazy unreal. Li Xiaoyue stood at the door and forgot his reaction for a moment. Mo Shaochen also stood in place and quietly looked at her. Neither of them spoke, but subconsciously, their eyes were entangled together Li Xiaoyue lifted his lower lip and hurriedly looked away. "Well... Let me see elder martial brother." Mo Shaochen smiled. "Stand at the door and look?" Li Xiaoyue was a little embarrassed and quickly shook his head. "Is elder martial brother''s injury better?" "Much better..." Some mechanical conversations not only did not alleviate the strange smell in the air, but became more and more embarrassing. Mo Shaochen didn''t speak, so he looked at Li Xiaoyue over there But who knows, she was so awkward that Gu Beichen and Jian Mo came back with breakfast. "Eh, Xiao Yue, have you finished watching officer ye?" Jian Mo also asked some people who were not afraid of big things, "is this officer ye and Shaochen?" "..." Li Xiaoyue''s face turned red because of embarrassment, and then glared at Jian mo. Jane Mo immediately smiled impolitely, although she was "tolerant". "Well... Elder martial brother, have breakfast first, I..." "You shouldn''t have eaten either. Let''s go together?" Mo Shaochen said when Li Xiaoyue paused slightly. Li Xiaoyue subconsciously shook his head and pulled Jian Mo''s hand. "Well, girl, I have something to do. You accompany me..." She doesn''t care whether Jane Mo wants it or not. Without even waiting for her reaction, she has pulled someone out of the ward At the right time, Jian Mo''s confused voice came: "Xiao Yue, how do I think you are a little guilty of being a thief?" The voice became distant with the footsteps of the two people. Mo Shaochen hung his eyes at the right time and hooked a shallow smile at the corners of his mouth. "I feel like a breakfast time. What happened?" Gu Beichen sat down and Mo Tong looked at Mo Shaochen deeply. Mo Shaochen''s smile deepened a little, "I overheard some things inadvertently, but I think that men should take the initiative to do such things..." Chapter 984 Gu Beichen slightly raised his eyebrows. On his cold, carved face, he slowly lay back on the sofa with a trace of examination. A pair of sharp eagle eyes, seemingly indifferent, actually looked at Mo Shaochen fiercely. "Why are you looking at me like that?" Mo Shaochen frowned slightly. "Shaochen, have you put down Xiaochu?" Gu Beichen is light. Mo Shaochen was not surprised when he was seen through. "It''s already the past tense, isn''t it?" Mo Shaochen asked. "What about Xiao Yue''s past?" Gu Beichen asked again, "you don''t care. Even if there is something in the future, you won''t enlarge the wrong past?" Don''t shake your head too much, don''t think too much. "Shaochen, Xiaoyue can''t afford another failure..." Gu Beichen said with great sincerity. "Mo''er can''t face her degeneration again!" It''s a warning and a reminder, which shows the strangeness of dignified. "Who hasn''t been there?" Mo Shaochen asked, "I used to have someone in my heart. Would she mind?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but waited for Mo Shaochen to say. Mo Shaochen sat down in his chair, slightly tilted his head, looked at the morning light outside the window, and his eyes narrowed slightly, "Beichen, I participated in Xiao Yue''s experience..." He gently hooked the corner of his mouth, "from her being just a little lawyer, to her imprisonment, and then to her coming back from taking the international card exam... Sometimes I wonder whether I just pay attention to her or love such a person?" "And then?" Gu Beichen''s indifference was so light, and his voice was deep. Mo Shaochen smiled and looked back at Gu Beichen. "Many things start with small things... More often, they have penetrated slowly when you don''t know." Gu Beichen frowned faintly. "Such subtle penetration is like a hair..." Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes and said in a far-reaching voice, "you didn''t pay attention at first. When you felt uncomfortable, you found that it was already in the position of your heart and tangled into a mess that didn''t clean up..." Gu Beichen also hung his eyes. His slender fingers knocked on his overlapping legs Lawyers are too cool headed. Most of the time, they need to analyze a lot of things. So that after some things are confused, you can always find the clue under the clues. Shaochen said this feeling, Gu Beichen actually knows very well Because, wasn''t he like this?! "Beichen," Mo Shaochen raised his eyes. People can''t see too much emotion on his face, but his eyes are particularly serious. "During Xiao Yue''s time abroad, I actually saw her in court more than once." "Huh?" Gu Beichen raised his eyes suspiciously. "I''ve been there many times..." Mo Shaochen said with a smile. "At first it was unconscious, then it was subconscious... I went there inexplicably, and then I looked at her from a distance." Gu Beichen was surprised. "At first, I just felt that I was not at ease..." Mo Shaochen laughed at himself, "but later, I found that I began to worry!" "Worried?" Gu Beichen said softly. Mo Shaochen nodded, "worried that she found me, worried that she thought I sympathized with her... More worried that if something was missed, it would really go the opposite way." A touch of sadness spilled over and shrouded Mo Shaochen. From an early age, even the mother''s closest sister''s house, even the aunt and uncle''s family, are good to him as if they were his own But people are like this. No matter how good they are, they are not as free as their own family. Together with Beichen, his aura will always affect others No matter he or Zixiao, because he is the same age, who doesn''t work hard because of the light of Beichen?! I chose a lawyer because of the lawsuit between my father and mother Choosing criminal defense does not want more grievances and continues to be wronged because of interests. He has little power alone, but he has his persistence. Such persistence has created his indifferent character. He wants to be a bystander in everything Afraid of yourself, sink in it and lose judgment. But often, there is always one thing, or a person, that you can calm down if you don''t want to calm down. Eat supper at night and look at her In prison, looking at her depressed to the verge of collapse California, looking at her efforts to stand up, she is serious and diligent In court, she was reborn from Nirvana Each one seems to be separated, but it is overlapping... He can''t distinguish it for a long time. When it was clear, he was afraid. She is afraid that if she takes the initiative, she will think wildly... And she is afraid that she is reborn from the fire, and she no longer has the mind of a little girl in the past. Fortunately She still wants to stand beside him, so, what''s to be afraid of?! Gu Beichen looked at the hidden tangle on Mo Shaochen''s face, but at last there was a trace of joy His sharp eyes almost saw through Mo Shaochen''s mind. His thin lips opened gently. Gu Beichen said slowly, "at the beginning, you stopped for Xiaochu because of me..." his eyes were opposite Mo Shaochen. "So Shaochen, would you stop for Xiao Yue?" Mo Shaochen was stunned, "Beichen, no one can compare with you..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil gradually became deep, "what if there is such a person?" Mo Shaochen looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously. Finally, he smiled and shook his head, "how can there be another you?" He paused. "Besides, I don''t want to." How many times in life? For Beichen''s retreat, there will be no such situation again ¡­¡­ "I said, since I came to London, I have either seen you lose your mind or saw you in a daze..." Jane Mo held a cup of coffee in her hand and sniffed, looking like she didn''t sleep well. Li Xiaoyue took back his eyes outside the window, "sad spring hurt autumn, can''t you force it?" "OK, OK!" Jane Mo took a sip of coffee to refresh herself. "But what happened when you went to Ye Chenyu?" Then she raised her eyebrows and asked brightly, "Hey, did he ask you to make a promise?" Li Xiaoyue frowned at Jian mo. Jian Mo shrugged. "Chu ran said that ye Chenyu made fun of them and told them to promise each other by example..." Li Xiaoyue''s eyebrows are tighter... It''s a joke! "Yes!" Li Xiaoyue answered angrily. Jane Mo immediately put down her coffee cup and leaned forward. "What''s your answer?" Li Xiaoyue took a fork in his hand and poked the cake on the plate every time. After a while, he slowly opened his mouth: "Ye Chenyu is very good, but he is not my destination..." Lifting his eyes, Li Xiaoyue looked at Jian Mo, "girl, is it too much for me to answer this?" Self mockingly pulled the corners of his mouth. Li Xiaoyue looked out of the window again, "fortunately... He''s joking!" Chapter 985 Time spent in the recuperation of Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu It was originally planned to return home within two or three days after the court hearing, but it was postponed to ten days because of injury. During this period, Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu didn''t care much about how the embassy and the British side solved the injury incident. Some things, care more, but not good. However, Gu Beichen is so short-sighted that only they know what blow some people have suffered! "Girl, when are you and your family going back?" After several days of adjustment, Li Xiaoyue''s mentality has been much better. "I should go back during the milk bag holiday..." Jian Mo said with a smile. "However, it is estimated that during the milk bag holiday and Jun Li may also come to UCL to communicate and see his little partner by the way." "Well, well, I heard it. The return date is uncertain!" Li Xiaoyue rolled his eyes. Jian Mo raised her eyebrows and looked at Ye Chenyu and Mo Shaochen who were talking to Gu Beichen in front. "It''s all right. If you say you''re going to get married tomorrow, I''ll put it down and go back." "..." Li Xiaoyue glanced at Jian Mo obliquely, and his eyes also fell on Ye Chenyu and Mo Shaochen. Jian Mo sighed and held Li Xiaoyue''s hand, "no matter what the result, you have me by your side..." Li Xiaoyue''s nose was sour in an instant. She took a deep breath, "I''m lucky to lose my life!" "Don''t be too pretentious..." Jian Mo smiled and scolded, and then said in a voice: "Xiao Yue, if you still care, go after it. Don''t waste time like me, and finally look back and regret." Li Xiaoyue smiled and nodded. Finally, I can return home. I''m happy for the protection team and the lawyer team. Although they experienced a thrilling experience during this period, they could not hide their mood that all of them could go back in the end. "I have something to tell you." Gu Beichen looked at the people holding their luggage and said to Ye Chenyu. "There''s still time. Go over there and have a cup of coffee." Ye Chenyu picked his chin and motioned. Then they went to the cafe together "Do you want to ask Li Xiaoyue or Shaochen?" After ye Chenyu ordered coffee, he crossed his legs at will. Gu Beichen looked at the opposite person with deep eyes. His face was full of evil. He couldn''t see that the injury on his birth was not completely cured. "Both." Gu Beichen spoke faintly. "I know she is what Shaochen likes," Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. "I can''t put my feelings further." "Don''t care at all?" Gu Beichen asked again. Ye Chenyu smiled, "Beichen, you asked... How do I feel? You really want me to chase Li Xiaoyue?" "Just be happy." Gu Beichen''s voice has some deep meaning. Ye Chenyu shrugged, "but I''m not interested in causing irreparable sadness for a woman." "Not at all?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "Chenyu, I am the same to you and Shaochen." "I know." Ye Chenyu restrained his pondering expression, "Shaochen and I are the people you care about, but Shaochen is also the one I care about... I know he likes Xiaoyue, do you think I will put my feelings on Xiaoyue?" Gu Beichen sighed deeply, "if you choose, I won''t persuade you... In short, don''t be brave about emotional things, but don''t shrink back." "Experience?" "Yes." Gu Beichen didn''t avoid it. "He has experienced too much with Mo''er. Many times, if you look back, you can deal with it well at the beginning, and many subsequent things won''t happen." Ye Chenyu lowered his eyes and was silent. When he raised his eyes and looked at Gu Beichen again, he slowly said, "if I really love, I shouldn''t give in... But it happened that I was strangled by myself before I started." Gu Beichen looked at Ye Chenyu deeply and wanted to see the sincerity of his words. Unfortunately, if a person is an undercover, you can''t see through whether it''s true or false. "I won''t rob anything or anyone with Shaochen..." Ye Chenyu tilted his head and saw Mo Shaochen who was talking to Li Xiaoyue and Jian Mo in the distance. "Everyone has different priorities in another person''s heart," Ye Chenyu said with a self deprecating smile. "Compared with love, I hope to be recognized by Shaochen... Even if he doesn''t know I''m his brother from beginning to end." Converging his eyes, ye Chenyu looked at Gu Beichen, "he grew up alone in your house. It seems happy, but in a sense, he is not as good as me..." At least, he has a mother. And Shaochen Ye Chenyu''s nose was a little sour, the corners of his mouth pulled, and said with an ugly smile, "Beichen, I know what you mean... You hope no one will leave regret for his life, and I don''t want to." After a pause, he looked at Mo Shaochen again, "but my regret is that it won''t be a Li Xiaoyue..." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and smiled. If he couldn''t understand Ye Chenyu just now, it would be a waste of so many years of experience and understanding Chen Yu likes Xiao Yue, but he talks too much about love. Family affection and love to Chenyu, he wants family affection more. Maybe it will be sad to let go of the budding love, but who can sigh whether it is worth it for others'' choice? When you know that you can only choose one fish or bear''s paw, only you know what you want most? The plane took off with a roar and carrying a new section of life A "journey", everyone gains and everyone loses something... But all this is just a heavy sum left for life, that''s all. "This is for you..." on the plane, Mo Shaochen handed Li Xiaoyue a small square gift box. "Huh?" Li Xiaoyue was puzzled and took it subconsciously. Mo Shaochen just smiled and his sight became deep. Li Xiaoyue opened the gift box with a puzzled convergence of sight, and saw a triangle lying quietly inside Li Xiaoyue opened his mouth slightly in surprise and looked at Mo Shaochen They looked at each other, and neither of them spoke. Li Xiaoyue''s expression was changing uncontrollably, and the corners of her mouth began to crack... Finally, while her nose was sour, a smile gradually overflowed from the corners of her mouth. ¡­¡­ "Hey..." Jian Mo stirred the thick soup with a small spoon, his other hand propped his chin and looked out of the window. Gu Beichen looked at her as if she was "so boring", and the ink pupil was deep. "After eating, go to UCL to see Professor Albert first, huh?" "Good!" Jane Mo immediately replied, "I really want to listen to another professor." "I guess you''ll be disappointed..." Gu Beichen drank water. "Why?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was slightly deeper. "Our trip will leave for the next stop tomorrow afternoon... Go to see the professor this afternoon and have his big class tomorrow morning." "That''s not right?" Jane was puzzled. Gu Beichen slowly leaned back on the chair, "but the professor invited me to have an open class in his class tomorrow..." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, but in a flash, her eyes burst with excitement, "it means that I can hear you talk about architectural design tomorrow!" "I can''t say... Just talk!" Gu Beichen smiled on his thin lips and looked at Jane Mo''s excited face. He leaned over and pointed his belly across her cheek. "I''ll go to the bathroom." The words fell, he had already got up, and Jian Mo''s subconscious partial head moved with Gu Beichen''s back, and the smile on his face could not be covered up. At the same time Shi Shaoqin holds star. Just as Jian Mo looks at Gu Beichen''s back, star and Jian Mo "face each other" and pass by the window Chapter 986 Star shook his little hand. On his white and tender wrist, he tied a natural blue agate that didn''t look very exquisite but was very upper. "Stone..." star suddenly brightened his eyes and pointed to the clown on the road ahead. He was excited and wanted to rub Shi Shaoqin''s arms. Shi Shaoqin didn''t let star do what he wanted, but said softly, "after crossing the intersection, let you down." Star is a little dissatisfied, but the little guy obviously knows that Shi Shaoqin said so, and his resistance is useless. Suddenly, the pink little mouth tooted and turned to one side At the same time, Shi Shaoqin took his steps and just crossed a window of the western restaurant. As far as star could see, there was only a shadow of Jian Mo reflected on the window. Jian Mo takes back his sight on Gu Beichen and looks out of the window In the crowded streets, people are in a hurry or staggering... She can''t help thinking of the breast milk bag when she first came to the city. "What are you thinking?" Gu Beichen sat down opposite. "When I came to England that time..." Jane Mo restrained her eyes. "In retrospect, it seems that there are many bumps on the road of life, but God is still good for me." Gu Beichen''s eyes are deep. "There was a milk bag before, and now you..." Jane Mo smiled. "I''ve never been alone on my foreign trip." "I''ll never be alone again..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth gently and held Jian Mo''s hand with his big palm. Jane Mo smiled, "yes!" She raised her eyebrows and moved her eyes. "Let''s go..." "Yes!" Jane Mo answered and got up and left the restaurant with Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen went to the building model market and bought a building model that didn''t look very exquisite. "It''s too perfunctory for you to coax the professor with this!" Jian Mo looked at the model, turned his mouth and shook his head, "at least choose a more exquisite one!" "I''ll tell the professor that Xiao Jie did it!" Gu Beichen was serious and didn''t feel embarrassed at all. "..." Jane Mo took a puff at the corner of her mouth, "Mr. Gu, you''re lying. You''re really coming with your mouth open." Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows and totally praised Jian Mo''s words. "You and I have to be careful in making models. What''s here doesn''t conform to our two pulling habits..." Gu Beichen said with a smile on his thin lips. "Tell the professor that Xiao Jie did it. He can''t hope that Xiao Jie can come and be a student for him in the future and live happily for a few more years." "..." Jane Mo listened and was speechless. "Let''s go!" Gu Beichen left the model market with the packaged model in one hand and Jian Mo in the other. "Ah Chen, are you sure... You want to cheat the professor like that?" Jane Mo is still thinking about this problem on the way. Gu Beichen looked at her and said with thin lips, "I''m coaxing him to be happy." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and nodded, "yes, coax the professor to be happy..." Speaking like this, Jane Mo wanted to see how to make her family Gu "embarrassed" under the professor''s sharp eyes! Unfortunately Jian Mo underestimated Gu''s ability to open his eyes and tell lies. Professor Albert not only didn''t doubt that it was bought from the model market, but also really believed that he said it was done by Jian Jie. "With your gifted parents, it''s no surprise that little Jemi has this skill." Professor Albert sighed and admired. Jian Mo said "ha ha", which was neither true nor true, nor was it true. Gu Beichen''s thin lips were always filled with a faint smile. While Mo Tong looked at Jian Mo, it was obvious that there was a trace of provocation inside. Jian Mo sighed secretly. Where is this person''s position? Even if the moon is square, does it make others feel... Well, it makes sense?! ¡­¡­ The sound of "bang bang" echoed in the small lift car. Shi Shaoqin''s long and narrow eyes are soft, and a beautiful handsome face is reflected by the sun, which is as soft as the water in the Thames River. He watched Star tap the glass of the car excitedly. His small ceramic face was full of curiosity about the world because of his wide vision. After a circle, star didn''t have a good time at all. Holding Shi Shaoqin''s hand, he went to line up again. "Oh......" Xi Cheng shook his head and sighed, looking at the big and small people in the queue. "If Qin Shao had been in the past, the queue was a ghost?!" You can''t just pull a bunch of people to line him up and charter the venue?! Qingqing looked at Xi City and said with a smile, "because there is star..." "I don''t understand. How did Qin Shao get settled by such a little boy?" Xi Cheng looked puzzled, "I found that Gu Beichen''s family was tortured that day." Qingqing opened her mouth and didn''t speak. She is now star''s personal servant and has been selected by thousands to accompany the young master all the time. Of course, she knows all these things. In the past, Qin Shao tortured Gu Beichen for three months in order to stay in Mo palace, but he still left. Later, Jane Mo stayed for a month Now, one of their children, a family of three, really let Qin Shao do many exceptions and make them wonder. "I think it''s very good..." Qingqing''s voice is a little distant. "Although it''s a little cruel for Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, it''s a good start for most people." A cold bloodthirsty person has feelings, or a person who can control him. Many people will have a good life. "Qin Shao wants star to see Jian Mo again this time?" Xi Cheng asked. "Probably not!" Qingqing pondered, "I didn''t hear the arrangement..." Xi Cheng looked at Qingqing and didn''t speak, but his sight fell on the large and small people in line in front. I came to London for a week, not to arrange for star and Jane Mo to meet, so Xi Cheng''s eyes were deep, and he pulled a cold smile at the corners of his mouth, "I''m surprised that Thomas has been jumping in such a hurry these two days..." "Huh?" Qingqing didn''t hear clearly and looked at Xi Cheng in doubt. Xi Cheng didn''t speak, but looked at the line of sight ahead deeper and deeper. Qin Shao, do you love Wu and Wu, or do you feel guilty for leaving star around?! The mobile phone vibrated in his pocket at the right time. Xi Cheng astringed his eyes, took out his eyes, and slightly tightened his eyebrows after calling. Xi Cheng answered the phone and turned to the other side, "what''s up?" "Here you are, ten o''clock!" Thomas''s gnashing of teeth came from the other end of the phone. Xi Cheng slightly narrowed his eyes, "Thomas, you should know very well that I don''t interfere in the shipment of ink palace." "The friendship of that year, help this time!" Thomas gritted his teeth. "Or, you tell me, why did Mo palace break my goods this time?" Xi Cheng sighed deeply, turned around, looked at Shi Shaoqin and star who had lined up to get on the ferris wheel, and slowly said, "I can only say that you touched someone you shouldn''t touch..." Chapter 987 Los Angeles. The summer night shows a trace of the sultry weather, but it can''t stop the pace of nightlife people. As a famous nightlife in Los Angeles, the paradise night in the golden Grottoes is even more noisy. "Erjing, you look like you''re dying. Who can I show you?" Xiao Nan put her foot on Xiao Jing''s ass and said, "go away and take up such a big place." "Sister, do you still have humanity?!" Xiao Jingxin moved his body reluctantly. "For the purpose of the acquisition case, I slept for up to three or four hours a day, which was almost broken." "Don''t cry here," Xiao Nan opened a bottle of beer. "If you want to cry, find Chen Shao." "Shit, when it comes to Chen Shao, the Qi in my heart is not smooth!" Xiao Jing suddenly sat up and saw that Xiao Qiang and others had already laughed badly, "fortunately, I was moved by a runny nose and a tear, and finally it was all a fucking pit!" "Calm down!" Xiao Nan smiled, "you don''t have a long memory..." Xiao Jing wanted to refute two sentences, but he found that there was no way to refute. Finally, I could only droop my shoulders bitterly, "Hey, life... It''s all routine!" "Come on, don''t be hypocritical." Xiao Qiang rolled over his eyes, "you are tired, but don''t you give full play to your value in front of Chen Shao?" He hummed, "don''t wait for us to beat you." Xiao Yu and Xiao Huan looked at Xiao Jing with their eyes overcast and evil and cunning. Xiao Jing immediately fought a cold war and spit. One by one, they stood up colder than the other, "drink first, and I''ll solve it..." Xiao Jing left the box and went to the bathroom. Suddenly He stopped and then stepped back. In the depths of another crossing corridor, Chu Zixiao stood with his pocket in one hand. In the corner, there was a woman in heaven night waitress''s clothes with her head down. Xiao Jing frowned slightly. "When did Chu Shao learn to embarrass the waitress?" He whispered suspiciously, "this painting style is not suitable?!" Xiao Jing is wondering whether to go and see the situation. It''s brother Xiao''s place. Chu Shao is embarrassed by the wine waitress here. It''s always inappropriate. "Do you have to be here?" Chu Zixiao''s indifferent voice came with a trace of Yun anger. Xiao Jing frowned This is, know?! "My business, don''t bother Chu, don''t worry." Zhang Nian clenched the next general and gathered together a close fitting waistcoat that could cover his hips. He looked up and looked up at Chu Zixiao, "it''s not worth worrying about." "Zhang Nian, you can degenerate freely, but don''t in front of me..." Chu Zixiao gritted his teeth. Zhang Nian smiled sideways. It was a sneer. There was even a trace of moist breath in the fundus of his eyes. "Chu Shao, heaven night is to open the door to do business. I serve wine here. When I meet any guests, I have no choice!" After taking a breath, Zhang Nian looked at Chu Zixiao again, "and Chu Shao doesn''t like me. You can just withdraw me from this box..." Chu Zixiao gradually narrowed his eyes and endured it. Suddenly he came forward, pulled Zhang Nian''s arm and dragged it out Xiao Jing turned around at the moment when Chu Zixiao turned around, and the man had turned aside. "Chu Zixiao, you let go!" Zhang Nian made a sudden effort and got rid of Chu Zixiao''s clamp. Chu Zixiao''s eyes suddenly became sharp and looked at Zhang Nian, "go by yourself, or shall I take you?" The indisputable multiple-choice questions are cold and domineering, and more importantly, they are unable to hide their anger. "I won''t go with you... Nor will I go by myself!" Zhang read his lower lip, "the rules of heaven night, Chu Shao should be very clear!" "Here, you talk to me about the rules?" Chu Zixiao sneered, "you don''t have this ability." Then he didn''t give Zhang Nian the chance to hesitate and resist. He wanted to drag her away again However, Zhang Nian suddenly stepped back and let Chu Zixiao catch nothing. Under the gloomy light, Zi became very angry. "Chu Zixiao, please don''t let me be desperate, and pretend to be a good man again!" Zhang Nian''s nose was very sour, but his face was completely disgusted. "At first, I don''t want to think about who is right and who is wrong. It''s unnecessary." "But no matter how many wrong things my father has done, he is always my father..." Zhang Nian sneered. "If I want to make him feel better, I have to ask for money!" After gritting his teeth, Zhang Nian made a self mockery at the bottom of his eyes, "I can''t afford to climb up, you Chu Shao, so please... Don''t participate in my next life!" Cold words fell. Zhang Nian coldly converged her eyes, turned around, clenched her hands and strode to the other side of the channel However, at the moment of turning around, tears could no longer control their dead strength. She doesn''t blame Chu Zixiao or her father. From beginning to end, if she didn''t want to go home and didn''t pretend to be her boyfriend with Chu Zixiao, everything might not happen. Chu Zixiao will not be angry because she was designed to spend a night with her, and Zhang Jia will not fall Dad, and uncles, won''t go to jail! It''s her Creating today''s situation is just that she loves someone she shouldn''t love! Xiao Jing frowned slightly and looked at Chu Zixiao standing in place. His sight fell on Zhang Nian who was far away. With a deep sigh, he turned and went to the bathroom. It hurts people. Where does Chu Shao''s love end up? It''s also a headache. ¡­¡­ the second day. It began to rain in London early in the morning, and the whole air was filled with comfortable moisture. In the stepped classroom of the University of London, a group of people began to occupy seats early in the morning. There are schools of architectural design and many other departments. I heard that it was Professor Albert''s proud student and imperial president Gu Beichen. They were very excited whether they came to attend the class or not. Jian Mo sat in the crowd, his sight falling in front During school, all the memories rushed up in an instant, and the corners of the mouth subconsciously smiled. ¡°Jane£¡¡± There was a voice of surprise. Jane Mo looked sideways at the place where the voice came from, and saw a man with dark skin and curly hair looking at her in surprise. "Powell?!" Powell walked to Jane Mo and they gave a polite hug. "When did you go back to school?" Powell took a seat beside Jane Mo, "are you here to attend the class, too?" Jane Mo smiled and nodded without saying who Gu Beichen was. The two chatted happily, and Jane Mo knew that Powell finally chose to stay in school. "I heard Professor Albert say before," Powell was so excited that he took Jane Mo''s hand and his eyes lit up. "Gu is not majoring in architectural design, but he is very talented..." Jane Mo listened to Powell boasting about the general manager in all aspects. It was like praising her. I didn''t realize how ambiguous Powell''s action of holding her hand and talking, coupled with the radiant smile on her face, was from a certain point of view. Gu Beichen stood at the door and looked at it for a while, his eyes getting deeper and deeper. Finally, if he didn''t hold back, he stepped in the direction of Jane Morse and Powell The classroom was already overcrowded, and Gu Beichen''s momentum from his bones captured everyone''s eyes. "He seems to be the handsome guy in the open class today!" "You see, there is his interview on the Internet..." "It''s really him. He''s so handsome!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The sound of whispering did not disturb Powell and Jane Mo at all. They had a great chat until Gu Beichen stood aside and the two found out. Powell subconsciously looked at Gu Beichen At the right time, the cold voice overflowed Gu Beichen''s thin lips: "you''ve been holding my wife''s hand, it''s inappropriate!" Chapter 988 Jane Mo always felt that it was difficult for pure British English to express momentum. However, at this moment, she heard the arrogance of Gu Beichen from his tone Instinctively, she pulled back her hand in Powell''s hand, pulled at the corners of her mouth, and her scalp was numb. Just now, I was just excited. In addition, I met my old classmates and was abroad... Naturally, I didn''t pay attention to these. Jian Mo looked up at Gu Beichen. At the right time, he also handed over his eyes, and his eyes were full of words. Jian Mo shriveled his mouth, drooped his eyes and began to interpret Gu Beichen''s meaning. Your life in the UK is really colorful, and you are very harmonious with your classmates... It seems that I want to have a good communication with you in the evening. Jane Mo was worried there, and Powell was not much better under Gu Beichen''s powerful momentum. Just when Powell was surprised and stunned and didn''t know how to react, Gu Beichen turned and went to the podium. "Is he your husband?" Powell reacted with surprise and excitement. Jane Mo took a puff from the corner of her mouth and nodded hard. Seeing that Powell seemed to be stimulated by something, he was crazy with his head in his hands Originally, Jane Mo thought that Gu Beichen would settle this account with her in the evening. However, she completely underestimated her family''s general manager''s jealous ability and revenge psychology. After the whole class, he simply lost many questions about architectural design, sharp and tricky Of course, the last person to be hurt will not be Jian Mo, who is always in pain and pet. It''s Powell "You are so cruel!" Jane Mo shook her head and sighed. Thinking of Powell''s frantic and embarrassed appearance in the big class, Jane Mo fought a cold war uncontrollably. How about being asked by a person who is not in this field and professional knowledge that he is speechless? What''s the situation?! There''s only one word to describe it. It''s terrible! "Really?" Gu Beichen''s voice was light. "Albert and several other professors feel that the questions I raised today are very good. Even, they need to continue to study and arrange them into the teaching plan." "..." Jian Mo took a swipe at the corner of her mouth, looked at Gu Beichen, who was seriously flipping the magazine, shook her head and sighed. The train is moving fast. It takes more than three hours from London to Leeds. Along the way, Jane Mo''s mind was full of Gu Beichen''s arrogance on the podium. Apart from "revenge" on Powell, this man is simply not adorable. It seems that there is no field he can''t conquer! "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo circled Gu Beichen''s arm and said with a look of worship, "Why are you so powerful? Hey, is there nothing you can''t do in this world?" "Yes..." Gu Beichen flipped a page of the magazine with a faint voice. "Yes?!" Jane Mo immediately widened her pupils curiously. Gu Beichen put down the magazine and looked at the front of his eyes. Then he looked at Jian Mo and said, "cook!" "..." Jane Mo took a smoke from the corner of her mouth, and then smiled, "fortunately, I have one better than you!" "Well," Gu Beichen astringed his eyes, "I''m afraid you have too low self-esteem, so I haven''t studied cooking seriously." The implication is that if you really want to be serious, even if you can''t become a chef, there''s no problem surpassing Jian mo. As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she immediately curled her mouth, "stink fart!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and saw her charming appearance. He couldn''t help but raise his thin lips ¡­¡­ Los Angeles, Yue law firm. "Sister Yue, aren''t you leaving yet?" While Chu ran was talking, she scratched on the door frame of Li Xiaoyue''s office. When he saw what Li Xiaoyue didn''t have time to put away, his eyes lit up. "Wow!" Chu ran jumped over and said, "sister Yue, when did you buy triangle?!" Li Xiaoyue''s face was a little red, but he soon converged. "You go first. I have some data to sort out." Chu looks like a ghost spirit, but it''s not so easy to kill. "Cough, sister Yue, it''s a little strange!" Chu ran raised her eyebrows. "Triangle is very popular in Britain. It is known as the angel of fate and love doll... Tut Tut, be honest. What''s the situation?!" Li Xiaoyue frowned. Chu ran sat down in his chair. "On the way back, what happened to you, Mo Bian and officer Ye DA in first class? Huh?" As soon as she was dishonest, I wouldn''t leave. "Sister Yue, you triangle..." Chu ran asked on the table with her eyebrows. "Is it from Mo Bian or... Officer ye?" "You don''t get off work?" Li Xiaoyue calmly put away triangle, "if you think you have plenty of time, or like to stay in the law firm, give it to me first..." "Hey?!" Chu ran suddenly got up, "suddenly remembered, I also made an appointment to have dinner with my classmates... Oh, the time is coming, sister Yue, I won''t talk to you, let''s go first... Bye!" Li Xiaoyue looked at Chu ran, who hurriedly ran away, and smiled at the corners of his mouth. But the smile didn''t open yet. Chu Ran''s deliberately amplified voice came from the outside. Suddenly, she froze. "Eh, don''t argue... It''s time to get off work now. Why are you here?!" Mo Shaochen glanced indifferently across the direction of Li Xiaoyue''s office, "I''ll come to find Xiao Yue for dinner!" "Oh..." Chu ran deliberately lengthened her voice with a sudden realization. "So it is!" "Huh?" Mo Shaochen was a little confused about the way Chu ran looked. Chu ran shook her head and smiled, "nothing..." She grinned and waved with Mo Shaochen, "don''t argue, then I won''t bother you to take sister Yue to dinner. I''ll go first... Bye!" "Bye!" Mo Shaochen nodded with a smile. Chu ran turned around and wanted to leave, but he just moved, and his eyes twinkled with cunning light. Turning around, Chu ran smiled clearly and whispered, "Mo Bian, triangle is said to be very clever!" She tried to hold back a smile, "I look after you, come on!" "Thank you..." Mo Shaochen said with an eyebrow. Chu ran immediately nodded her head and thought. At the same time, she looked at Li Xiaoyue''s office: it turned out that triangle was sent by Mo Yan... Tut Tut, sultry high-quality man, is this ready to act?! Chu ran took back her sight and waved to Mo Shaochen. This time, she didn''t stop, but left the law firm with a smile on her face. Mo Shaochen walked to Li Xiaoyue''s office, "aren''t you ready to get off work?" Li Xiaoyue was a little cramped, but she covered it up very well. "I''m going to go..." she said with a smile at the corner of her mouth, "elder martial brother is nearby. Come by?" "No!" "Huh?" Mo Shaochen''s eyes looked at Li Xiaoyue deeply, "I came here specially." "..." Li Xiaoyue suddenly turned a little red. His sharp mouth in the court didn''t know what to say for a moment. He could only subconsciously ask, "come here specially. Is there something?" Mo Shaochen nodded, looked at Li Xiaoyue''s muddled appearance, smiled and slowly opened his mouth: "come after you..." Chapter 989 Li Xiaoyue doesn''t know how to describe the mood at this moment. There are surprise, hesitation, surprise and embarrassment Many emotions were intertwined at once, which made her confused. "Elder martial brother..." Li Xiaoyue shouted. Mo Shaochen smiled and raised his eyebrows. "It''s not a joke!" "..." Li Xiaoyue flapped her eyelashes in a numb way. For a moment, she didn''t know how to react. When Mo Shaochen sent her triangle on the plane, her heart had burst. However, he didn''t say anything more. She could only resist all kinds of emotions and don''t let herself think more. ok In fact, she couldn''t help thinking more Thought a lot! For example, why did Mo Shaochen send her triangle?! Does he think that triangle is very special and is given to her as a gift for the victory of the trial? In fact, it has no other meaning... I don''t know what triangle represents?! ¡­¡­ Anyway, Li Xiaoyue spent ten hours on the plane thinking about it. But now, he said so bluntly that he wanted to ''chase her'' Looking at Li Xiaoyue''s ever-changing emotions, Mo Shaochen copied his pocket with both hands and smiled faintly, waiting for Li Xiaoyue to figure it out. However, it is obvious that he "overestimates" women''s emotional feelings. He lowered his eyes. Mo Shaochen smiled and looked up at Li Xiaoyue as he spoke. "I thought triangle had given you the bottom. When I officially said it, you wouldn''t be too surprised." Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen from the corner of his mouth, "but..." "I know what triangle means!" Mo Shaochen said with a smile. In his sight, he clearly saw through Li Xiaoyue''s mind. Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen and glued together for a long time before she hooked her lips. "Elder martial brother chases me, but I don''t necessarily respond..." Li Xiaoyue said in a coquettish voice. Mo Shaochen nodded, "it doesn''t matter. I''ll catch up with you and respond!" The low and shallow voice shows the calm of Mo Shaochen''s habitual character, but it won''t make people feel perfunctory and casual. Li Xiaoyue''s smile deepened at the corners of his mouth, and even a thin layer of water mist was dense at the bottom of his eyes. Mo Shaochen came forward and pulled Li Xiaoyue''s hand. His sight fell on her finger with some scar marks He gently rubbed the position with his fingers. It was the unexpected injury he and Beichen had done when they were in prison. "Xiao Yue, wait for you to stand by me with confidence..." Mo Shaochen raised his eyes and looked at Li Xiao Yue deeply. "I''ve been waiting for a long time." I''m afraid you think I''m sympathetic because of your low self-esteem, and I''m afraid that my sudden will make you shrink back. I''ll wait in place when you can match me I won''t allow you to flinch if you walk at the same height! ¡­¡­ Leeds, dark street arena. At more than 3 p.m. local time, there was already a great deal of noise in the fighting field, and the shouting seemed to lift off the whole roof. "Sister K, Gu Beichen is coming back?" Asked a man with a cockscomb head, wearing an I-shaped vest and revealing a large tattoo on his skin, with a cigarette in his mouth. Sister K, with beautiful short hair, is dressed in tight leather clothes, wrapped around her exquisite and beautiful figure with turbulent undercurrent. She glanced at the cockscomb and then looked coldly at the fighting platform. "Sister K..." Another man playing with the army stab raised his eyebrow, "when Beichen left, everyone worked hard for one field. Now we have several fields. What are you thinking?" "What do you think?" Sister K sneered, "what do you think I''ll think?" "Big Jun," cockscomb glanced sideways at the man playing with the army thorn and hissed coldly, "who is Gu Beichen now? That''s the president of emperor group who can be counted all over the world... It''s not the man who mixed the dark street and killed with us." With a whoosh, just as the cockscomb fell, the military spike in Dajun''s hand had been directly shot into the target in front. "Sister K, I''ll ask you a question," big Jun Leng hum, "did you count the things between you and Gu Beichen in those years?" "He has a wife now!" Sister K said a word and went back. "I''ll be her!" Big Jun bared his teeth and showed his ruthlessness. Sister K narrowed her eyes slightly. Among a large number of men, she not only didn''t lose momentum, but made people have an arrogance that they can''t look directly at. "Da Jun, a woman who can''t move in Mo palace, what do you think... What can you do?" At the same time, sister K has turned her head to Da Jun, with a warning in her eyes. With a bang, Da Jun smashed his fist on the iron pillar on one side and made a buzzing sound. "You''ve been waiting for so many years. What''s the end?" Dajun gritted his teeth. "When he was studying in England, you said shit and agreed not to find him. Later, you didn''t find him when you went back to Los Angeles... Why, now people stand tall, there are women and children, do you want to show off?!" Sister K put her arms around her chest and didn''t speak. The cockscomb gave Dajun a wink and pulled him aside, "Dajun, it''s no use for you to be unfair about this..." "I don''t think sister K is worth it!" Big Jun snorted coldly and looked ahead at sister K on the fighting platform. Now, no one in Leeds knows the name of sister K. In order for Gu Beichen to enter the dark field, he saw the woman who came out of the crowd of men step by step from people who didn''t understand anything to today''s cruel people. The cockscomb heaved a sigh and patted Dajun on the shoulder. "Today''s Gu Beichen is not the self indulgent Gu Beichen. Dajun, I wish sister K knew something." Then he patted Dajun on the shoulder and went to sister K. "Sister K, you really don''t care at all?" The cockscomb tilted his head and asked. Sister K''s eyes are gradually far-reaching, even a little blurred. The day of fighting together seemed to be yesterday. She was cut off in the street. While dragging Gu Beichen, who was covered with blood, she cried At that time, people still called her k-sister. "Ow, ow..." Suddenly, a burst of excited howling came from the field, interrupting sister K''s thoughts. She looked at the fighting platform indifferently, and the side where she bet won. "Go and collect the money!" Sister K said to the cockscomb head, and then walked to the fighting field with cold and arrogant steps. The sunshine outside, with the unique scorching heat of summer, is in sharp contrast to the fighting field built in the basement. Sister K went to one side of the locomotive, sat on it, turned the key and started to the railway station According to the news, Gu Beichen and his wife will arrive in Leeds in half an hour. I haven''t seen you for so many years. Goodbye... What''s the situation?! Once, they were not in the same world. She fell into a dark street for Gu Beichen! Now, there are a lot of people following her to eat. When she can''t get away, she finds... That person has been standing in a bright place. So Even if she works hard, she and he are not people in the same world Chapter 990 The train arrived at Leeds railway station. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and walked out As the second largest city in Britain, it is full of the prosperity of the metropolis and the charm of the city alone. "I haven''t been to Leeds for more than four years in London." Jane Mo looked around curiously, "at first, it was inconvenient to carry a milk bag. Later, she studied hard and had to take care of the milk bag..." Speaking of this, Jane Mo left her mouth and whispered, "but the milk bag didn''t let me take care of it. Most of it was taken care of by Jun Li!" Gu Beichen suddenly stopped and looked slightly at Jian Mo, "what are you complaining about?" "No..." Jane Mo quickly shook her head, and with a flattering face, she circled Gu Beichen''s arm. "And she firmly didn''t try to stop you!" "Oh, really?" Gu Beichen said softly and looked ahead, "but I think you make my heart stop from time to time while laughing at my childish behavior." "Absolutely not!" Jane Mo suddenly held back her smile and laughed at the thought of reading the message under the forum book on the train. Gu Beichen sighed, glanced at Jian Mo and said, "I think I want J to black that forum..." "Why?" Jane didn''t react for a moment. Gu Beichen looked at her with deep eyes and slowly opened his mouth: "save you from indulging in illusory remarks..." "..." Jane Mo took a swipe at the corner of her mouth and said with a smile, "Mr. Gu, I think you think everyone doesn''t support you. Are you unhappy Gu Beichen slightly sank his face. Finally, Jian Mo shook his head around triumphantly and sighed softly No amount of unhappiness can compare with her smile. Gu Beichen held the back of Jian Mo''s head and gently kissed her on the forehead The setting sun penetrated between the two people and spread along their cheeks Sister K looked at her from a distance, and a complicated smile came out of her mouth. How beautiful Beautiful, enviable. Sister K just felt that her nose was suddenly sour, lowered her eyes, and when she raised it again, Gu Beichen had let go of Jian mo. they smiled at each other and walked to the side of the road Sister K didn''t turn to her locomotive until they got into a taxi. Shuttling through the streets, I looked out through my helmet at the noisy streets. Inexplicably, my eyes became red Inadvertently, a drop of boiling hot overflowed the eyes, spread across the cheeks, and finally caught the salty faint at the corner of the mouth. Once upon a time, she also imagined that Gu Beichen was so gentle... Even if everything was illusory. "Squeak -" The screeching sound of braking came. Despite the roaring and whistling vehicles behind, sister K just stayed there, looked ahead and smiled. However, her tears could not be contained. How long?! How long has she not shed tears? Once, looking at the man covered with blood, she cried and tore. But now Sister K took a deep breath, turned the accelerator, drove the locomotive through the busy street, and finally stopped at the door of a bar in the bar street. "Sister K..." a younger brother has come forward and flattered to take the helmet taken down by sister K. Sister K has restrained her sad mood, and her cold face shows coldness that can''t be looked at directly. "Hey, how do you feel that sister K is in a bad mood?" "Won''t the field lose?" "It''s impossible... Sister K usually doesn''t fight uncertain battles. Unless there''s a black curtain..." "Pull it down. If there''s a black curtain, sister K would have copied the guy." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The voice of discussion was left behind. Sister K entered her unique box, and the corner of her mouth overflowed with self mocking laughter. Now she has forgotten to cry and is so strong that... Everything needs to be solved by force. Open a can of beer, sister K looks up and drinks it all in one breath Gu Beichen, what am I after all these years? ¡­¡­ "What is this place?" Jane Mo frowned slightly. Just in the taxi, when ah Chen said the destination, the driver looked strange. At this moment, looking at the street in front, inexplicably, Jane Mo just felt a chill coming towards her But now, it''s summer! Looking sideways, Jian Mo looks at Gu Beichen. While waiting for an explanation, she suddenly finds that his cold facial lines are a little tight. "Ah Chen..." Jane Mo whispered uneasily, and his men consciously grabbed his sleeve. Gu Beichen restrained his mind and looked at Jian Mo with a smile. "This is a very special street in Leeds." "Huh?" Gu Beichen looked forward again. "Everyone knows what''s hidden here, but it''s a place that can''t be banned..." During the day, it was quiet as if it were dead. From three o''clock in the afternoon, there was a lot of noise. The busiest time here is midnight, not only in the stores, but also outside! Slice knife, shrink stick, baseball bat Whistling in the wind, all is the sound of wailing and tearing. Blood filled the air and filled the nasal cavity, making people sick, but there was no time to pay attention to that feeling. Gu Beichen clutched Jian Mo''s hand and gradually tightened... Even uncontrollably. If Mo palace for three months, it is a turning point to change his life. Then here is the most indelible stain in his life! Jian Mo''s hand was clenched by Gu Beichen, but she just clenched her lips tightly without humming. Feel Gu Beichen''s breath, Jane Mo can''t tell what it is, but inexplicably, she is sad. Come forward, Jane Mo gently leaned against Gu Beichen''s chest and didn''t speak. In this way, she quietly felt his disordered heartbeat. "I won''t care about the past, ah Chen, no matter what''s good or bad..." after a while, Jane Mo slowly said, "... It''s all yours." Her nose is also a little sour, "as long as it belongs to you, I don''t mind!" Gu Beichen gently loosened his hand holding Jianmo. He grabbed Jianmo and spilled a touch of self mockery on his thin lips. "Not afraid of the past, but..." Gu Beichen sighed. "Some of the past, when you look back, you find that you used to be so degenerate and childish." "You finally admit that you are childish?" Jane Mo looked up with cunning in the bottom of her eyes. Gu Beichen smiled. Deep in his eyes, he was full of emotion. His little woman is so blunt to change the topic, but she has the ability to make him unable to immerse himself in the past "Let''s go!" "Yes." Jane Mo smiled and nodded, and went into the bar street with Gu Beichen. "Is there a destination?" Jane Mo looked left and right as she questioned. "Yes." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen curiously, suddenly stopped, and asked with a vigilant voice: "eh... Gu, when we get to our destination, will we suddenly appear like a woman who once lived and died with you and waited for you to come back?" Chapter 991 Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at Jian Mo with a serious face and curious eyes Jian Mo''s upper body retreated slightly and looked at Gu Beichen with a wary face, "Gu Zong, your expression... Is fishy!" Gu Beichen immediately looked black, "I''m just like being merciful everywhere?" "Like!" "..." Gu Beichen pulled his thin lips. "You have a criminal record..." Jane Mo skimmed her mouth, "for example, Lu man..." Then she began to count the gossip history of Gu Beichen in the first two years of marriage. "You said it yourself, that''s gossip..." Gu Beichen heard that at last, on his cold face, the tight facial lines gradually became soft, and the corners of his mouth were filled with a smile. Jian Mo glanced, "there''s no wind in the hole..." as she said, she pulled Gu Beichen and continued to move forward, "general manager Gu, it''s easy to discuss other things in the past, women..." "How''s it going?" Gu Beichen asked with a smile. Jane Mo tilted her head and grinned and hummed, "there is no amnesty for killing!" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil suddenly became deep and satisfied, "well, I''m willing to have such a strong possessive desire for my wife." Jane Mo grinned proudly, but she was relaxing the atmosphere from beginning to end and didn''t want Gu Beichen to be too intoxicated in the past. After three months in the Mo palace, she learned something from Li Yunze and the Dragon owl. Now he brought her to the place where he had "lived", just to show him in front of her without reservation However, she was distressed. Of course, under such heartache, what Jane Mo didn''t expect is that such a woman really exists! "Sister K?" The prickly man listened to Gu Beichen''s inquiry. He first looked up and down at the circle, then picked his eyebrow and hummed, "there is only sister K, not sister K." "Oh?" Gu Beichen said softly, "then I''ll find sister K." "I''m sorry..." the prickly man arrogantly lengthened his voice, "sister K, it''s not easy for people to see..." Gu Beichen was not angry, but asked slowly, "how can I see you?" The prickly man looked contemptuously at Gu Beichen, who was more casual in his clothes. Then his eyes fell on Jian Mo, and the bottom of his eyes was full of teasing, "she!" Jane Mo immediately frowned and looked disgusted. Gu Beichen''s eyes are already deep and bottomless, "apologize!" "Ha ha!" The prickly man laughed twice, "why, I don''t apologize, do you want to fight?" His words fell. Suddenly, several men who looked like gangsters gathered together. Jian Mo grabbed Gu Beichen, and he gave her a stable look. Jane Mo nodded at the corner of her mouth and saw Gu Beichen loosen Jane Mo, "you go aside..." "Well, be careful!" Jane Mo was worried, but she also saw that whether it was because of her or whatever, it seemed that she had to fight. Jian Mo didn''t seriously see Gu Beichen''s "fight". When he easily solved several people gathered around, she said "tut tut" in secret. Her man is really good at everything except cooking! "Pa, PA, PA..." Suddenly, there was a sound of clapping hands. Before Jian Mo had time to be a flower addict, Gu Zong of her family was just quick, and her thoughts were interrupted by this strange clapping. Looking back, I saw a tattooed cockscomb head and a cold looking, large man coming "Ah Chen?" Jane Mo felt the smell of danger. Gu Beichen glanced at her and signaled that it was all right. But this eye hasn''t been taken back yet. Cockscomb head and Dajun have shot at Gu Beichen one after another. Jane Mo looked at the three people entangled together, and her heart involuntarily mentioned it to her throat. Obviously, these two men are much more powerful than those just now. Even if Jian Mo only looks at the surface, he can feel that Gu Beichen has to work harder than dealing with five or six people just now. Jane Mo didn''t dare to make a sound, but looked at the three fighting people nervously. Just now, she can easily worship her family. President Gu is very powerful. At present, the only thing left is to worry "Bang" came just when Jane Mo was nervous. Before she could scream, there were two heavy blows. "Ah Chen!" Jane Mo instinctively opened her eyes and exclaimed. See cockscomb head and big Jun have then retreated a few steps, the two sides once again showed the pattern of confrontation. Gu Beichen was punched in the chest, but the cockscomb head and Dajun didn''t get well. One person was kicked, and the other cheek was already red. "Still coming?" Gu Beichen''s voice was indifferent. "I haven''t seen you for so many years. I can''t imagine that money hasn''t let you down." The cockscomb smiled and said, "it''s still so cruel." Gu Beichen smiled and walked forward. The three held together The corners of Jane Mo''s mouth twitched. The nervous and worried nerves were uncontrollable and almost wanted to scold. The way they meet and "say hello" is really special! "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen let go of the two people and shouted at the same time. "Jane picked up and down the chicken, and Gu Xiaomo walked up and down," said Jane Dajun gave Jian Mo a cold look, and the cockscomb head raised his hand to say hello. Jane Mo smiled and nodded with the two people, but they obviously felt their rejection of her. "Sister K doesn''t know if she''s back," the cockscomb''s head converged on Jian Mo''s eyes, looked at Gu Beichen and patted him on the arm, "go, go and have a drink first." With that, I don''t know whether it was intentional or unintentional. After pulling Gu Beichen, he hugged him and walked to the bar Jane Mo shrugged slightly, very conscious and didn''t need to be greeted. Hum, sister K must have something fishy with Gu! Jane Mo thought as she skimmed her lips. "If sister K knew you were coming back, she would be happy..." the voice of the cockscomb head was already excited. "I saw you basically reported before. Tut Tut, you said you would come back... Trustworthy enough!" Gu Beichen looked sideways at the cockscomb head. Almost at a glance, he saw through his mind. He didn''t poke it, but looked back to see if Jane Mo had followed. Jane Mo followed her not far or near. Seeing Gu Beichen looking back at her, she gave him a "perfect" smile. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. He couldn''t help but feel the cool wind blowing for a while This woman is smart. It''s a real headache. Obviously, his Mo''er has felt the rejection of ah Ji and Da Jun. And this sense of exclusion comes from sister K. "Is sister K back?" Dajun asked a little brother. "Back, in the bag..." the younger brother said, subconsciously looking back at the private room, he saw sister K standing at the door, "sister K!" The crowd looked at it I saw sister K half copying her hands in the trouser pocket of her leather pants. Her sight was uncontrollable and she stared deeply at Gu Beichen Chapter 992 The atmosphere seemed to become a little strange in an instant, which could not be ignored in the noisy bar. Jane Mo looked at sister K quietly, completely in a state of alert. Sister K has a good figure and is wrapped in tight leather clothes. She is convex in front and tilted back. She is an absolute beauty. Beautiful short hair, less strong makeup, Martin boots Everything in this woman reflects the ruthlessness of her ability. However, such coldness did not affect her charm at all, but set off her own beautiful things. Because Xu led many men, sister K still has a domineering spirit that people can''t look directly at. It seems that as long as she stops there, she must become the focus Tut Tut, this point is to compete with her family Gu. Jane Mo converged her gaze and looked slightly sideways at Gu Beichen. He saw a smile on the corner of his mouth, with ease under the evil charm. Hum, whether this woman has anything to do with you or not, you don''t want to go to bed at night! No In a month, you don''t want to go to bed. Go to sleep on the floor. As for a month later... I have to see my mood! Jane Mo is an atmospheric person. She thinks so in her heart, but her face doesn''t show any emotion she shouldn''t have. No matter what sister K thinks about her family Gu, she absolutely trusts Gu If there is such a woman in the past, Gu''s Current temper must be vaccinated first. Since she didn''t say anything before she came, Jane Mo felt that it was one thing for her not to let Mr. Gu go to bed, but it was another thing to think without knowing anything. "K younger sister......" Gu Beichen slightly raised his eyebrows and shouted. Sister K''s nose is sour in an instant. For many years, no one dares to call her that in the dark street of Leeds! She restrained her mind and even put away her little daughter''s mind. Sister K stepped forward Her steps are steady and capable, even if the heart is turbulent. "Beichen..." elder sister K shouted. Then she came forward and hugged Gu Beichen. Jane Mo left the corner of her mouth and whispered, "Oh, a hug I haven''t seen for many years... Tut Tut, I don''t know what feelings are hidden!" In the noisy environment, Jane Mo''s voice could not even be heard by herself. Gu Beichen Yu Guang crossed Jian Mo and saw her look like "Gu Beichen, you''re waiting for me to settle accounts with you". She couldn''t help laughing to her heart. After sister K and Gu Beichen hugged each other, they let go. "Long time no see!" Gu Beichen said with deep eyes. "Long time no see..." sister K was a little emotional. The man who was bloodied and killed in those years has long faded his childish self abandonment. Now he is mature and more attractive. "This..." sister K glanced at Jane mo. Jane Mo came forward gracefully, "Hello, I''m Jane mo." She didn''t directly say that she was Gu Beichen''s wife. On the one hand, she didn''t think that sister K didn''t know. On the other hand... Sometimes, generous provocation is more depressing than stingy publicity. Gu Beichen has a smile like nothing in the corners of his mouth. In the depths of his ink pupil, there is an uncontrollable spoil. His little woman, smart and domineering, is distressing Sister K obviously didn''t expect Jane Mo to be so "generous", but she didn''t raise her hand with any emotion on the surface, "Hello, everyone is called sister K!" Jane Mo and sister K shook hands. They didn''t have much emotion for each other... At least not on the surface. "I haven''t seen you for a long time. Sit down first and I''ll arrange the dinner... Everyone must be very happy to know you''re back." After sister K let go, she didn''t pay too much attention to Jane mo. Gu Beichen nodded. "Sister K, I''ll arrange..." jiguantou smiled and nodded with Gu Beichen. The man had left. I went to the bar to chat with a few people. It''s a very Chinese restaurant. The whole restaurant is packed. The mighty people and the roaring voices make people feel like they are in the scene of... TV, gangster party. Jane Mo looked around and suddenly felt that her description was inappropriate. Because, not as if But really in such a scene! Everyone pushed the cup and handed it over. From the beginning, Gu Beichen drank a little casually. In the back, there was no appearance of the president of a multinational company at all. It was a gangster''s sense of vision. "I heard that you are Beichen''s wife?" A little sister came over and put the beer bottle on the table with a bang. Jane Mo looked at her with a smile. She was the picky little sister and nodded with a smile. "It looks good..." the little sister looked up and down at Jian Mo with a sharp stab, "but how can this figure be shrunken?!" Jane Mo hung her head and looked at her exquisite figure and frowned slightly. "It''s estimated that ah Chen likes this style... If it''s too full, it''s a loss!" The little sister didn''t recognize what she meant. In the end, it is foreign life. We often can''t think of so many broad and profound words and hidden meanings in China. "How can brother Beichen like your style... If you like it, it''s like sister K!" Jane Mo was not angry, but said innocently, "it doesn''t matter whether you like it or not. What matters is that I became his wife..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± In a word, the choking little sister was speechless for a moment! Suddenly, the sound of "clang" came with heavy objects on the table. Jane Mo glanced at a box of beer. "Brother Beichen''s wife, isn''t she?" The man leaned on the table with a ruffian look on his face and looked at Gu Beichen, who was entangled by a group of people in the distance. "Since brother Beichen brought you to this field... How can I join you? Hey, you say, right?" Jane Mo glanced at the beer and nodded with a smile. The man didn''t talk much and opened all the beer, "don''t say I bully women, you ten, I twenty!" "It doesn''t seem appropriate to melt you alone..." Jane Mo fanned her eyes, and the bottom of her eyes was full of Qingming. "I''m afraid you need to melt a lot of people next?" In a word, let the man and the little sister''s face collapse a little. They didn''t expect that Jane would guess. Jane Mo sat there without moving. She just picked up a bottle of beer Work less and drink more. In fact, ten bottles of beer is not unbearable, but this tolerance... Can''t stand everyone''s provocation. Obviously, they deliberately delayed ah Chen in this game, and then everyone was not rude, so they "civilized" to do something for sister K. Jane Mo sighed and rubbed the beer bottle with her fingers. When she was thinking of drinking or not Suddenly, the bottle in his hand suddenly emptied! Suddenly, everyone subconsciously deviated from the past and saw Gu Beichen, who had been entangled, in front of him Chapter 993 "Mo''er is in poor health. I''ll drink this wine!" Gu Beichen Mo Tong looked at the man deeply and looked up. While drinking the beer in one breath, he gently held Jian Mo''s shoulder with his other hand Jane Mo frowned slightly, "ah Chen?!" He has drunk a lot in the evening. If he drinks like this... Is there a problem?! Gu Beichen held Jian Mo''s hand and gently pinched her shoulder, indicating that he was okay. The little too younger sister and the man on one side looked at each other and looked at Gu Beichen''s face, which was getting a little wrong. After drinking a bottle, Gu Beichen looked at the empty bottle in his hand and said slowly in a low voice: "we didn''t have so much thought when we drank together before..." Raising his eyes, Gu Beichen looked at the man, "adze, come back... I come back as agreed, and I also want Mo''er to participate in all my life." The man who was called "adze" looked a little ugly, "brother Beichen..." "If you call me brother, you should know my temper very well." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes suddenly became familiar with the bottom, and his body was filled with a cold breath that people can''t ignore. Adzuki''s heart has been tightening uncontrollably, just like the air squeezing him, so that he can''t control it at all. Jane Mo gently pulled Gu Beichen down. She knew best, but now he was angry She doesn''t want Gu Beichen to do something because of her on such an occasion. I can see that no matter how much these people reject her, they are very attentive to ah Chen Gu Beichen gently pinched Jian Mo again. His words were timely and calm, but his thin lips overflowed with force. "Hurt me, you can... I never want to care too much about my brother." "Brother Beichen..." adze grinned secretly. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deeper and deeper, and the words that adzi was going to say choked in his throat. "Hurt her..." Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face has been replaced by indifference, "adze, I will deny it to my six relatives!" In a word, it''s very light, but it''s like a boulder hitting the hearts of people nearby. Originally, those who wanted to hold grievances for sister K looked at each other Then, my eyes fell on sister k who came over at some unknown time. The atmosphere was a little awkward and treacherous. Sister K glanced at Jian Mo, sighed, and walked forward. "Everyone is just kidding..." she said, gesturing to the adze to take the wine away. Adze and little sister were uncomfortable, but they didn''t dare to do anything. They hurried away with the wine. "Beichen, there''s still waiting for you to continue the game..." sister K said, "I''ll accompany Jane mo." Gu Beichen stared at sister K deeply and then looked at Jian mo. Jane Mo shook her head with a smile. "You go to remember the past and recall the years when your youth passed... I chat with sister K." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and was unhappy. Can''t she be more willful and insist that he stay? Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen''s warning, but didn''t see it, "go..." Gu Beichen sighed and leaned over. No matter how many people looked at him, he gently kissed Jian Mo''s forehead, "this round has passed, let''s go, huh?" Jane Mo smiled and nodded. Gu Beichen spoiled and rubbed Jian Mo''s cheek with his thumb, then got up and went back to the bureau just now. "He loves you very much?" Sister K''s eyes fell on Gu Beichen''s back. "I love him too..." Jane Mo smiled and looked at sister K, "do you love him too?!" Yes, yes. "Yes..." sister K didn''t avoid, "loving him has consumed all my emotions!" Jane Mo felt a little uncomfortable, but she had no right to stop other people''s feelings. Sister K''s vision has always fallen on Gu Beichen, "once, I also had a good life... But because of him, I entered a world I will never think of." Jane Mo didn''t speak and listened to sister K quietly. "Break away from the family, learn to fight, learn how to survive in this dark world..." sister K laughed at herself, "but just after I learned, he was leaving." "He has his responsibility..." "Yes, he has his responsibility." Sister K smiled, "so I didn''t stop... Just made an appointment with him." Then, sister K looked at Jane mo. Jian Mo asked, "what agreement?" Sister K looked at Jian Mo, her face was completely calm, frowned secretly, and then slowly said, "wait for him to come back..." she deliberately paused, looked closely at Jian Mo, and didn''t want to leave any expression of her, so she slowly said her last words, "... Marry me!" Jane Mo frowned slightly, but then she smiled. "Although I didn''t have time to participate in ah Chen''s past, he won''t give you such an agreement!" Jane Mo shook her head and said. Sister K snorted coldly, "you marry him now, of course you don''t want to face such a situation." "No..." Jane Mo said calmly. "At that time, he didn''t have a heart. How can he give you such an agreement?" A rhetorical question made sister K suddenly change her face. "What kind of person ah Chen is, I know better than anyone..." Jane Mo''s eyes deviated and fell on Gu Beichen. "He will say to come back, but it''s definitely not because he wants to come back and marry you!" Even if he didn''t want to, he married her, even if it was just a contract... But if he needed it, he would only find her as his wife. There are many rumors outside, but he has never really gone one step beyond the thunder pool. How can such a man casually give a woman a promise to marry her?! "That''s how you believe him?" Sister K has a deep view. Jane Mo smiled, "he is my husband, the one I love... Why don''t I believe him?" A rhetorical question made sister K frown. At the right time, Gu Beichen also looked good and came to see Jian Mo from a distance... Then he looked at each other and smiled. Jane Mo took back her sight and looked at sister K, "sister K, I''m persistent in what I knew I couldn''t hold in my hand... Why don''t you let myself go?" "Jane Mo, I lost everything for him." Sister K said coldly, "especially the family." "But this can''t be a burden that ah Chen must have on you..." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "Maybe I''m ruthless in saying so. But love shouldn''t give chains..." Sister K and Jane Mo are in the same sight, and there are electro-optic flints that are not giving way to each other. Sister K is a person who has worked hard on the road for many years. Her eyes and momentum have been invisible for a long time. But Jane Mo has experienced too much. She may not be able to do a lot of things in her life However, she couldn''t give in to Gu Beichen at all. Two women, at this moment, no one lost in momentum. But sister K knows how thoroughly she lost The night wind gently brushed my face. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo didn''t take a taxi or let sister K send them away. They just walked hand in hand on the streets of Leeds at night. "I''ll go back to the hotel and open two rooms..." Jane Mo said after holding back for a long time. Gu Beichen frowned, "why?" Jane Mo stopped and looked at Gu Beichen. She pulled a smile from the corners of her mouth, "I''m afraid sister K will come to you at night. It''s inconvenient for me..." Chapter 994 Listening to Jian Mo''s words and looking at her smiling expression, Gu Beichen''s face gradually showed a dangerous expression Even the ink pupil, which was as deep as the sea, gradually overflowed with a smile. Just, such a smile surprised Jane Mo''s heart suddenly "You..." Jane Mo slightly opened a safe distance, "what are you doing?" Gu Beichen approached slowly and looked at Jian Mo step by step. Because he was close, his instinctive consciousness retreated. Jian Mo grinned and stared slightly, "Mr. Gu, let''s say first... Move your mouth and don''t do it..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered softly. Jane Mo stared slightly, "huh?" Well, what does that mean? That is to Jian Mo hasn''t figured it out yet. Gu Beichen has long arms around her waist and suddenly pulls her to himself and sticks to him tightly With the trend, another big palm holds the back of Jian Mo''s brain. Jun''s face has fallen down, and thin lips accurately fall on Jian Mo''s lips All the movements are smooth and fast, almost instantly completed at the same time! "Well" came, and Jane Mo widened her eyes. Her general manager Gu is really talkative... Don''t do it! The fiery kiss mixed with the smell of wine encroached on Jian Mo''s mouth. She didn''t drink, but she felt that she was drunk under Gu Beichen''s superb lingering kiss... She was too drunk! Jane Mo closed her eyes and let Gu Beichen kiss her "unbridled" bully in the street at a foreign night The breath is more and more fluffy and chaotic. Gu Beichen, who has always been steady and indifferent, had no self-control in front of Jian mo. At the moment, I drank a lot of wine, and because of the noisy atmosphere of brotherhood all night... My body is full of male hormones. Jane Mo was thinking that if she wasn''t on the street, her Gu would turn into a beast again! The night is as romantic as water. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo kissed together in ecstasy. Occasionally, pedestrians passed by, but they just showed their appreciation under exclamation Sister K looked at her from a distance. On her slightly drunk face, under the dark corner, there was a sadness under her self mockery. Beichen loves this woman. Has he loved her to the bone? I knew before that once this heartless man moved his heart... He would be doomed. But his "abyss" was never her! I don''t know how long she kissed. Sister K only felt that when her body began to get cold under the summer night, Gu Beichen ended the kiss as long as a century. Jian Mo was a little out of breath. Gu Beichen''s sometimes overbearing and sometimes gentle kiss had confused her mind... She could only slightly raise her eyes and look at him like silk. "To you," Gu Beichen said slowly in a low and hoarse voice with charm in his deep ink pupil, "I''ve always been able to speak, so I won''t do it..." "Teng" for a moment, Jane Mo blushed. "Shameless..." Jane Mo scolded. Gu Beichen smiled and gently kissed Jian Mo on his forehead, "well, you don''t need it!" "It''s funny," said Gu Mojiang "Yes!" Gu Beichen gently answered, let go of the hand holding Jane Mo''s waist, took her hand and continued to walk forward However, while leaning, I flashed across sister K in the distance. After arriving at the hotel, Jane Mo went to the front desk. "Huh?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Jane Mo just took a deep look at Beichen, and then registered another room. Gu beichenjun''s face was already dark, "Mo''er?!" Jane Moyang raised the room card in her hand and smiled so much that it was called a can if flowers. "Mr. Gu, don''t think that your kiss will make me forget to think..." her face was proud, "you can stay in the empty room alone tonight!" Then she left the corner of her mouth, shook her head from side to side, and turned to the elevator Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face was shrouded in a haze. With an unhappy face, he followed Jian Mo into the elevator. They are on the same floor, but the newly registered room of Jian Mo is closer to the elevator. The previous one is closer to the inside of the corridor. With a "bare" sound, Jane Mo opened the door. Holding the doorknob in her hand, she blinked at the dark Gu Beichen, "Gu, good night!" "..." Gu Beichen had a warning in his eyes. Jane Mo was totally wrong. She deliberately twisted her waist and entered the room. A complete sense of "I''m not happy with my mother, and you don''t want to feel better". Of course, by the way, I stirred the heat of Xia Gu Beichen. I can see... I can''t eat! No one said that men are particularly hot under the influence of alcohol?! Listening to the "click" sound of locking, Gu Beichen looked down and smiled. My Mo''er, you are so smart... How can I not love you?! Gu Beichen sighed, raised his eyes, looked at the closed door, and then stepped forward He leaned against the door and whispered in a low, enchanting voice, "remember to lock the door... Well, prevent wolves!" Then he took a deep look at the position of the cat''s eye, got up and walked to the room he had opened before Jane Mo lay on the cat''s eye. When Gu Beichen left, she twisted her eyebrows and looked aside. She whispered, "what did he just say?" Confused, Jane Mo didn''t think much. She turned and went to the bathroom to take a bath and prepare to go to bed. However, she slept with Gu Beichen every night. Jian Mo found that she was becoming more and more hypocritical That''s why her family Gu doesn''t hold her. Why do you think this night is empty, lonely and cold?! "Hey..." Jian Mo looked at the roof in the dark, "I''m generous enough to suffer..." When she skimmed her mouth, Jane Mo closed her eyes again. I''m going to start counting sheep If you decide something generously, you have to fall asleep on your knees! Jian Mo counted sheep tossed and turned in this room, but Gu Beichen''s room was full of unspeakable complexity "Did you know I would come?" Sister K leaned on the Roman column with her arms around her chest. Gu Beichen copied his pocket with one hand and turned to her side. His sight fell deeply on the ink space outside the window There is no star tonight, only the hazy half moon, with a less bright light. "I know," Gu Beichen said faintly, "Mo''er also knows..." The words fell, he turned his head and his eyes fell on sister K''s face. Sister K frowned slightly, and the corners of her mouth moved back and forth. She wanted to say something, but she still endured it. Gu Beichen took back his sight and looked out of the window again. "Sister K, Mo''er is a very smart woman. She has the emotion that women should have, but she also has the atmosphere that many women don''t have..." "Isn''t she really angry when I come to you at night?" Sister K asked coldly. Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a shallow smile, "she will only be angry with herself and feel that she is too generous to me..." after a pause, his voice became quiet and distant, "but some words always have to be understood, don''t they?" Chapter 995 Gu Beichen turned slowly, but he didn''t move in place. His eagle eyes looked deeply at sister K, and his words spilled over his thin lips "Sister K, I don''t know how you understood my words when I left... Or how others understood your meaning." After a pause, he continued: "however, the promise has never... Agreed, but I will come back to see you!" Sister K''s face was a little bad, and her hand around her chest was also put down. The man stood up straight while touching the corners of her mouth. Gu Beichen turned around again and went to the bar and poured two glasses of water over there. "I don''t explain because I don''t want to explain or need to explain..." After Gu Beichen handed a cup of water to sister K, he went to the sofa and sat down. He really drank too much tonight. He hasn''t drunk like this for too many years The last time I was drunk, it was the night mor left Los Angeles for England! The slender fingers grabbed the glass, Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, his eyes looked vaguely at the water refracted by the light, and his voice became secluded "Mo''er believes me, she won''t doubt me!" Sister K has a sour nose and laughs at herself. "What am I? What was I once?" Gu Beichen raised his eyes, Mo Tong looked at sister K deeply, sighed and said, "sister K, everyone''s way is their own choice... Understand?" In a word, sister K only felt the position of her heart and suddenly tingled. She tilted her head to one side, endured the dense water mist from the bottom of her eyes, and the self mockery at the corners of her mouth became stronger and stronger. Gu Beichen looked at sister K in this way, and his voice continued calmly: "no one can add his own misfortune to others... No one has to bear anything for the misfortune of others!" If you want to bear it, you should add Who will pay for his life?! Gu Beichen coldly narrowed his eyes and drank water. If you don''t know how to let go of yourself, no one will be your salvation! "I don''t love you, never..." Gu Beichen youyou said, "when you met me, I didn''t have a heart, you know!" "But you didn''t go back long before you got married!" Sister K''s mood began to be unstable, and her red eyes were angry. "Do you believe in fate?" Gu Beichen looked at sister K again, "at that moment... At that place, there happened to be such a person in front of you?" "...." sister K trembled slightly at the corners of her mouth and didn''t speak. Because Gu Beichen was the person who happened to appear at that moment and at that place. "I am to Mo''er, Mo''er is to me..." Gu Beichen smiled, smiling so softly, "just right, understand Not one person''s hope, but the prosperity of two people If it''s not for each other, it will run counter in the end. Because it''s her, and it''s him to Mo''er, so... It''s a complete circle without any gap. Night, too deep. So depressed that people can''t breathe The locomotive roared on the road, venting its emotions and mixed with how much sadness. "Sister K, I''ve never been attracted to you, and I can''t even talk about loving you..." Gu Beichen''s words echoed in his ears, "to me, you are like ah Jun, who used to be crazy and degenerate together, that''s all!" If you are indifferent, there is no procrastination. Sister K just thinks that she is a big joke And this joke, sadly, continues. ¡­¡­ Jane Mo turned over sleepily. The familiar breath, familiar arms and arms made her sleep not very steady. She gradually slept stably The next day, the sky in Leeds was gray, as if it was going to rain at any time. Jane Mo slept a little heavy in the morning because of "insomnia". When I wake up, it''s almost ten o''clock "Good morning, husband..." Jane Mo said with a groan. She didn''t open her eyes, but arched in Gu Beichen''s arms. "Good morning, wife!" Gu Beichen''s magnetic voice came from overhead. First, Jane Mo''s brain circuit paused for a few seconds, and then suddenly opened her eyes The purpose is Gu Beichen''s strong chest, and his wheat skin is full of male hormones. Jane Mo suddenly opened the distance between herself and Gu Beichen. First, she looked left and right to make sure that she was indeed in the newly registered room last night. Then she stared and looked at Gu Beichen with one hand clenching her fist gently "When did you run to my bed?!" "When his wife kept shouting for her husband to hug..." Gu Beichen looked serious. "The devil will say to hug..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth and asked, "I''m asking you, how did you get into my room?!" Gu Beichen smiled. "I went to the front desk and said I wanted to see if my wife kicked the quilt when she was sleeping... I was very worried... Then the front desk was very moved and gave me a second room card and praised me as a good husband!" "..." Jane Mo bared her teeth and sat up with a gloomy face. Gu Beichen didn''t move, so he looked at the angry Jian Mo, "but when his wife fell asleep, she can still know it''s my arms. For this... I''m satisfied!" "..." Jian Mo continued to choke without a word. She felt that her life was eaten by Gu Beichen for Mao?! "I can''t sleep in the middle of the night for my husband. I can only sleep by coming over and secretly hugging me..." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and said back, "well, I''m also satisfied!" Gu Beichen heard this, and a dangerous light flashed across his eyes. Jane Mo almost instinctively reacted and turned over to get out of bed Unfortunately, it''s late! "Ah!" When Jian Mo was dragged back by Gu Beichen, she saw the hungry wolf rushing up. Before she could react, the man had been pressed to death. "I''m hungry..." Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s appearance of swallowing her and immediately opened her mouth. "Just eat me!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Jane Mo was speechless by Gu Beichen''s answer. And the final result, of course, is a few rounds of fighting in bed By the time Jane Mo was exhausted and had breakfast, it was already lunch. "You don''t love me..." Jane Mo complained. Gu Beichen poured juice for Jian Mo and said in a low and magnetic voice, "I only love you!" "You don''t care about my health and don''t give me breakfast..." Jane Mo snorted. Gu Beichen stopped the action in his hand and looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. "Hey, I think you were very happy to eat me at that time... I didn''t mean to disturb you to continue." "..." the food that Jane Mo had just stuffed into her mouth almost fell down in amazement because Gu Beichen said ambiguous words solemnly. "Look how much I love you..." Gu Beichen said. "Ha ha..." Jian Mo turned his eyes with a sniff. She gave Gu Beichen 101 points for his shamelessness. Well, I''m not afraid of his pride at all! Suddenly Jian Mo looked out of the window and stopped looking at the people standing there and said slowly, "ah Chen, the person who is looking for you to settle the account is coming..." Chapter 996 Dajun stood outside, looking at Gu Beichen talking and laughing with Jian Mo coldly, and his eyes gradually filled with anger under the cold. He has never seen such Gu Beichen, whether in Leeds before or later in the report. Gu Beichen, who was young in the past, was cruel, while the later emperor president was cold But everything has nothing to do with him at the moment. As if the Millennium black ice had been covered, the soft and sunny were full of beauty. Gu Beichen heard Jian Mo speak and looked out of the restaurant. He looked at Da Jun''s and looked slightly deeper. He converged his eyes and looked at Jian mo Jane Mo shrugged. "It seems that your previous life was really colorful!" "..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep, and then slowly opened his mouth, "let his wife laugh..." Jane Mo left her mouth. "I''ll wait for you here?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered, then got up and went outside the restaurant. When Dajun saw Gu Beichen coming out, he first looked at Jian Mo coldly, and then walked to the chair for pedestrians to rest not far from the restaurant Gu Beichen also walked over indifferently. They sat down. The atmosphere was obviously stiff. Gu Beichen put one arm on the armrest of the chair, and his slender legs overlapped at will. The other arm was put on it The whole posture is lazy, but it has a domineering spirit that people can''t ignore. Da Jun leaned slightly, his arms supported his legs, and his hands overlapped in front "Beichen, what''s the matter with sister K?" Dajun was silent for a while before he asked. "In what way?" Gu Beichen pretended not to understand, and the eagle''s eyes looked at Dajun deeply. Dajun glanced at Gu Beichen, "feelings!" "No!" Gu Beichen opened his mouth without thinking, and his voice was cold and indifferent. Dajun sat up straight with anger in his eyes. "What were you and her at the beginning?" He said coldly, "because you have a wife now... What''s sister K waiting for so many years?" Gu Beichen looked at Dajun and his voice was still calm. "Dajun, how much do you know between me and her?" Big Jun frowned. "When she fell into darkness, I told her... Don''t try to redeem me with her depravity. What?!" Gu Beichen converged his sight and looked ahead. "Dajun, she and I are impossible from the beginning." "But sister K has been waiting for you for so many years..." Dajun said gritting his teeth. Gu Beichen smiled, but there was no temperature. He looked at Da Jun again. Mo Tong had become fierce and far-reaching, "wait, I''ll respond?" Gu Beichen sneered, "then I guess even if it is divided into hundreds, I can''t respond..." "Gu Beichen!" As soon as Da Jun heard it, he clenched his teeth and shouted, ''Teng'', and stood up. Gu Beichen remained unmoved. "Da Jun, you have been with sister K for so many years, and you haven''t seriously considered the relationship between you two?" He looked slightly at the door of the restaurant, "push her to me, it''s not her happiness... You won''t be happy!" A word didn''t agree, and he was exposed. Dajun was a little angry at once. Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at Da Jun, "I won''t be the end of sister K. as for whether sister K is your end, it depends on yourself..." Then he stood up. Gu Beichen, with his hands in his pockets and a look of arrogance, is different from that in those years Now he can''t be underestimated and questioned by others. "Da Jun, don''t try to hurt Mo''er..." Gu Beichen said faintly. His voice is calm, but it gives people invisible depression. "That''s not only what you can''t bear, but also what the whole hall can''t bear!" The words fell, Gu Beichen deeply stared at Dajun, didn''t say anything, turned around and walked to the restaurant "Gu Beichen, you threaten me?" Big Jun grits his teeth. Gu Beichen stopped and looked back with a sigh. "It''s not a threat, it''s advice from friends..." after a pause, he continued, "I don''t need to do it, okay?" Dajun frowned heavily, and there was an unspeakable complex emotion in the fundus of his eyes. In the end, they were all mixed up on the road. Da Jun understood Gu Beichen''s meaning almost instantly. In the previous high safflower list, someone wants to buy Gu Beichen''s son Gu Yan''s life Finally, Gu Yan not only lived well, but the Mo palace even said to protect him! Gu Beichen''s meaning at the moment is... If Jian Mo is moved, will the Mo palace step down directly without his hands?! Thinking of this, Dajun couldn''t help fighting a cold war. Gu Beichen saw that Dajun had understood his meaning, didn''t say anything, and turned back to the restaurant He didn''t want to press people with the ink palace. In Britain, the night gate of the Dragon boss can frighten people in the dark street. It''s just that I once fought together He also organized the hall meeting, although he didn''t hold any position in the hall meeting from beginning to end. It''s also a lie to say that some things have no feelings at all. ¡­¡­ After Gu Beichen went out, Jian Mo was not in the mood to eat. She just took a spoon and casually pulled the thick soup in the bowl, looking a little angry "Miss, this is what the gentleman over there invited you!" The waiter put a glass of red wine in front of Jane mo. Jian Mo looked at the direction pointed by the waiter and saw that it was a man with an oriental face. She frowned slightly, "sorry, I don''t know him, so I don''t need this glass of wine!" The waiter was a little embarrassed. He just took the gentleman''s tip. Jane Mo glanced at the man indifferently, "then please help me get the gentleman back..." Then Jane Mo took a tip to the waiter. The waiter was a little embarrassed, but he still took the glass of wine and went to the Oriental man The waiter didn''t know what he said to the man. The man took the note, wrote it and handed it to the waiter. "Miss, this is from the gentleman!" The waiter handed the note to Jane mo. Jian Mo looked at it and saw it in Chinese: Thank you, Ms. Meili, for the wine! "..." Jane Mo pulled out a little uncontrollably from the corner of her mouth, and then turned her eyes helplessly. This man is really big hearted They are all domestic people. If they can misinterpret her refusal in this way, she is also drunk! Just thinking, Jane Mo felt her hands empty... She subconsciously raised her eyes and looked opposite. While Gu Beichen sat down, the eagle''s eyes fell on the note. "Take ten bottles of the top wine in the restaurant and send them to this gentleman." Gu Beichen shook the note in his hand, "he said, my wife invited him to drink enough!" "The waiter''s eyes are bigger than the bell. Gu Beichen was indifferent, took out a few pounds and put them on the waiter''s tray, "do you want me to repeat it?" The waiter was like eating a fly. The corners of his mouth were slightly open and couldn''t close. Hearing Gu Beichen''s deep voice, he quickly shook his head and answered, and then went to prepare. "Local tyrant!" Jane skimmed her mouth. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with a dark face, "my wife can really attract men''s attention wherever she goes!" "Each other!" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "It''s better than some people meeting their old lovers in the hotel in the middle of the night. At least I''m aboveboard!" Gu Beichen immediately frowned, "I''m not sneaking!" "Really?" Jane Mo snorted, "in the hotel in the middle of the night, lonely men and women..." "Well, I can''t see it until I get my wife''s permission?" Gu Beichen''s voice is already a little dangerous. Jian Mo just wanted to refute two sentences. Gu Beichen''s mobile phone suddenly vibrated She didn''t speak again. Gu Beichen picked up the phone and put it in his ear. Just, in a minute, his face changed. "What''s the matter?" When Gu Beichen hung up the phone, Jane Mo twisted her eyebrows and asked. "Sister K has an accident..." Chapter 997 "Ah?!" Jane was stunned. "What does it mean to have an accident?" "I''m in the hospital..." Gu Beichen said, ringing the call bell and asked Jian Mo at the same time of checking out. "Will you go over with me or go back to the hotel?" "Together!" Jane said without thinking. Gu Beichen nodded, got up, took Jian Mo''s hand and wanted to go out. But the talent stood up and a tall figure stood in front of him. "Ten bottles of top-level red wine..." the man looked at Gu Beichen dangerously. "It''s really generous." Jian Mo frowned slightly. Before Gu Beichen could speak, he had circled his arm, slightly picked his chin and said, "if this gentleman doesn''t drink well, you can pack ten more bottles!" Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and a faint smile crossed his eyes. "A man, hiding behind a woman..." the man''s eyes were slightly deep, "I''m afraid it''s not appropriate?!" Gu Beichen slightly raised his eyes. The eagle eyes looked at the man indifferently, gently opened his thin lips and said slowly, "that''s because my woman let me hide!" Jian Mo immediately smiled and looked at the man surprised by Gu Beichen. He looked at Gu Beichen and left without saying anything The general manager of her family really kills people invisibly! Jian Mo was sideways and wanted to praise Gu Beichen, but he found that his face was not good... He endured it again. I think sister K has been hospitalized. It should be very serious. The two got into the taxi and Gu Beichen glanced at Jian mo The waist length hair was made into a big roll, so it was scattered casually, wearing an irregular knee length waistcoat skirt with white and blue... It is very simple and plain, but it is full of unique charm. "Turn around and tie up your hair and try to wear less skirts!" Gu Beichen said coldly. Jane Mo was stunned at first, and looked at Gu Beichen with a confused face, "why?" "You''re such a man..." Gu beichenjun''s face was calm. "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, and then she reacted. Just now, her family Gu had a bad face and was jealous again. "Gu Zong, you are a little jealous!" Jane skimmed her mouth. Gu Beichen ''hummed'' and made it clear that he was jealous and justified. Jane Mo didn''t say anything more. On the one hand, she didn''t like that there were other men who had thoughts on her except her general manager Gu On the other hand, she felt that it was not easy for her family Gu to worry about sister K and her. When we got to the hospital, the whole operation floor was full of people who would attend the meeting. It looked a little shocking Dajun, who broke up with Gu Beichen, went to the hospital first. He stood in front of the operating room with a pair of eyes staring at the light board "in operation". The cockscomb head saw Gu Beichen and Jian Mo coming and greeted them, "Beichen..." "What''s going on?" Gu Beichen asked with a light frown. The cockscomb looked at Jian Mo and said in a dignified voice, "sister K didn''t come back last night. You know, we got up late... When we find sister K, we''ll..." "Have you learned anything?" The cockscomb nodded. "There''s no news back yet..." he said, sinking his face. "Shit, if I know who did it, I''ll do it!" Gu Beichen glanced at Da Jun standing at the door of the operating room, and then looked at Jian Mo, "it seems that it will take a while, you..." "I''m fine." Jane moju shook her head at the corner of her mouth. "You don''t need to worry about me. I''ll wait with you." For Jian Mo''s consideration, Gu Beichen was warm in his heart and nodded. Liz''s side became particularly dignified in the scorching noon because of sister K''s sudden accident. Compared with the atmosphere in Leeds, the sky in Los Angeles has just dimmed, and the whole city is full of night intoxication "Brother Yu, treat, treat!" "Treat..." "Treat!" Qiao Rui took the lead. Everyone looked at Ye Chenyu excitedly one by one "Brother Qiao, I''ll give you a formal notice to celebrate tomorrow." it''s estimated that brother Qiao will see it in advance... " Ye Chenyu smiled and shrugged, "you choose a place, I''ll make a phone call." "Brother Yu, go!" Qiao Rui gave a thumbs up and went to discuss the place to eat with everyone. Ye Chenyu turned to the staircase and called his mother, "Mom, I won''t go back at night. My colleagues shouted to have dinner together." "Drink and don''t drive!" Mother Ye explained. Ye Chenyu smiled, "Mom, I''m a law enforcement officer." "Well, I just remind you..." mother Ye looked at the ingredients prepared in the kitchen. "Will you come back to bed that night?" "No, it''s estimated that it will be late after the noise. Go straight back to the apartment!" "Well, ok..." mother ye answered, "remember to come back tomorrow and eat leftovers." "Good!" Ye Chenyu answered, said a few words with his mother, and hung up the phone. "Brother Yu," Qiao Rui saw Ye Chenyu coming back and raised his mobile phone, "I just made a private decision to call Mo Bian and Li Yan when they are free. Do you mind?" "Mind if I ask you to call back and tell them not to come?" Ye Chenyu asked. Qiao Rui was stunned. Seeing ye Chenyu''s calm face and no emotion, he asked a little uncertain, "brother Yu, let''s have fun together..." "Tease you!" Ye Chenyu patted Qiao Rui on the shoulder. Seeing everyone laughing, he asked, "has the place been decided?" "Yes, a new Korean barbecue... Smecta!" Someone has answered excitedly. Ye Chenyu casually picked his chin and motioned everyone to go The crowd went to the barbecue shop, and several people from the nearby lawyer team have arrived. "Eh, everyone is active in eating!" Ye Chenyu joked. The people were also used to his lack of solemnity and said with laughter: "it''s necessary... Officer Ye is promoted. We can''t come here yet?" The people were happy for a while. Because of the large number of people, the landlady directly divided the film area and arranged it for them. We don''t know whether it''s intentional or unintentional. Next to Ye Chenyu, one is empty opposite that one. "Yo, isn''t this seat suitable?" Someone has joked, "is officer Ye sitting next to me, or Li Bian?" "Of course, Li argued!" Someone has already raised his eyebrows and said, "before eating abroad, didn''t you sit like this?!" Everyone smiled tacitly "I said officer ye, do you want to deal with Li Bian?" Someone asked while sending chopsticks, "tell me, it''s not appropriate to just sit on the side and don''t move!" "Yes, yes..." We are all young people, whether true or false, we have begun to joke. But when everyone was excited, someone suddenly said in surprise, "I''ll go. What''s the situation?" "What''s the matter?" The crowd looked sideways at the door I saw Mo Shaochen holding Li Xiaoyue''s hand and entering the barbecue shop Chapter 998 Ye Chenyu also looked sideways at the door and watched the two men come in side by side. The corners of his mouth were filled with evil spirits and a deep smile. When they came back, all three of them were promoted to first class because they were injured and needed care. Although he was "sleeping", he still knew when Shaochen gave Xiaoyue a gift "Wow, what''s going on?!" Someone exclaimed. At this moment, the ordinary people who just made fun of Ye Chenyu began to talk about Mo Shaochen and prepare to "torture"! Mo Shaochen just stood there, but couldn''t smile. Where can people let him go? For a while, the barbecue meat and vegetables came up, and no one went to roast them. They all gathered around "The shoes are not suitable. I just turned at the door..." Li Xiaoyue said with a gloomy face. "Cut..." the people didn''t believe it. "I say Li Xiaoyue," Ye Chenyu said leisurely, with his spare arm on the table and the back of his hand on his cheek. "You''re with Shaochen, and no one laughs at you... Your excuse is too insincere!" "..." Li Xiaoyue blushed and glared at Ye Chenyu. There are so many coincidences and unexplainable things in this world Elder martial brother is chasing her. Well, she should understand correctly. However, when she first came in, she really sprained her heel, and then the elder martial brother held her, and then Wrong?! Li Xiaoyue was a little stunned It''s normal to hold her, but why did you hold hands when you finally came in?! With this understanding, Li Xiaoyue felt that his "excuse" was really too insincere The crowd looked at Li Xiaoyue''s ever-changing and finally red face and tacitly looked at Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen smiled and looked at Li Xiaoyue and slowly said, "as you can see, I''m chasing Xiao Yue..." His words just fell, and suddenly, everyone came a startling cry of "wow". Then, it is necessary for everyone to joke. "Brother Yu," Qiao Rui rubbed against Ye Chenyu after making trouble for a while, "I thought you had a play with Li argumentation. Why didn''t you argue first in the end?" Ye Chenyu took a sip of beer, squinted at Qiao Rui and said, "if I tell you I like men, do you believe it?" "Don''t believe it!" Qiao Rui shook his head firmly. "Then I tell you, I have no interest in her, do you believe it?" Qiao Rui pondered a little and continued to shake his head, "don''t believe it!" "Get out!" Ye Chenyu said and kicked Qiao Rui. Qiao Rui was quick and avoided, "tut Tut, brother Yu, are you angry?" "Do you look like me?" "Like!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Ye Chenyu twitched at the corners of his mouth and squinted at Qiao Rui. "I was trying to promote the chemical reaction between them..." "Oh..." Qiao Rui said with an expression that I understood but didn''t believe it at all, "so it is..." "..." Ye Chenyu didn''t bother to explain when he saw that Qiao Rui didn''t believe it at all. Sometimes, the more you explain, the darker it gets! "I said, do you all eat?" Ye Chenyu looked at the crowd around Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue, "this oven is about to melt, and no one will bake it?" As soon as everyone heard the cry, they let Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue go and sit down in their seats. Naturally, Li Xiaoyue still sits flat with Ye Chenyu, and Mo Shaochen is opposite her. After foreign criminal defense cases, we eat and live together every day. We have long been familiar with everything Barbecue is another lively occasion. After a while, everyone talked about the topic of Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue, and gradually talked about something else. After a meal, it has been three hours Some people don''t enjoy themselves and suggest going to KTV to continue playing... We hit it off at once. "Emperor Entertainment Club?" Mo Shaochen said, "please!" "Eh..." someone''s gossip has rubbed up, "Mo Bian, please... Why do you have to have a reason? Everyone says, right?!" "I think Mo Bian just wants to say that it''s better to bump into the sun than to make public his affairs with Li Bian. I''ll invite you today..." "Yes, I think so!" "Can I say that I want to go for whatever reason?" A special police officer has opened his eyes, "Emperor Entertainment Club, that place, I don''t know if I can enter it once in my life!" "Look at your promise..." Qiao Rui kicked the speaker, turned around and grinned at Mo Shaochen, "but what he said is also what I think, hahaha..." "How do I feel that somehow I have been confirmed?" Li Xiaoyue whispered and suddenly rejoiced that Chu ran didn''t come today. Or... With that girl, I can''t turn the sky! They went to the Emperor Entertainment Club again. In such a large box, everyone sang and drank. Finally, they had a good time. Naturally, they wanted to have some classic games Truth, adventure! "Declare in advance that you have no choice..." Qiao Rui and others made it clear that they want to dig gossip. "It''s up to the person who turns to decide whether the person who turns to is sincere or risky!" Naturally, they had no objection, and Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu looked at each other and knew what their purpose was. "Come on... Hurt each other!" Ye Chenyu looked indifferent. "I''m afraid that some people''s gains will not pay off in the end." The people looked at each other and basically learned about ye Chenyu''s abdominal black, especially the people of the special police team. "Shit, who''s afraid of who?" Qiao Rui drank a bottle of wine in one breath, "I''ll come first!" Then he took the bottle and put it on the table, lay flat and began to turn I don''t know if my character is bad. We played for more than half an hour, not to mention turning to Ye Chenyu and Mo Shaochen. Even Li Xiaoyue hasn''t been transferred. People who have made clear their minds howl and play with others one by one. How can they play with themselves. "Finally, it''s up to me..." The bottle returned to Qiao Rui''s hand. He rubbed his hands and controlled the power of turning the bottle Li Xiaoyue is a little nervous. If she put it in the past, she also plays these games crazy. But today Fortunately, the bottle didn''t turn to her at last, but it was on Mo Shaochen! "Ha ha..." Qiao Rui immediately excitedly pointed to Mo Shaochen and asked, "Mo Bian, honestly... When did you start to like Li Bian?" Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes and smiled. Then he looked at Li Xiaoyue, "much earlier than she thought..." Quiet words, with a trace of deep sinking. The crowd was in an uproar for a while, but Mo Shaochen didn''t give everyone a chance to have fun with Li Xiaoyue. Just when Li Xiaoyue was stunned by his words, he had taken the bottle and turned up Chapter 999 Everyone followed the bottle mouth and moved their eyes. When they saw that the speed gradually slowed down and then stopped "I''ll go..." Qiao Rui looked at Li Xiaoyue. "Do you want to be so annoying..." He gritted his teeth and immediately looked at Mo Shaochen, "don''t argue, don''t bring water... Otherwise, we''ll send a new representative to solve the problem!" "Don''t worry, I won''t!" Mo Shaochen said with a smile. When he said this, everyone was not at ease Li Xiaoyue looked at the expression of the people like wolves and tigers, with a helpless face, "I said, it''s fake for you to play games, isn''t it true to toss people?" "Well, are we so obvious?" Qiao Rui asked with a smile. "It can''t be more obvious..." Li Xiaoyue pulled at the corner of his mouth and looked at Mo Shaochen. It''s impossible for senior brother to let her take a big risk. I just hope... He doesn''t ask any tricky questions. Ye Chenyu took the wine and drank it. It was ugly from beginning to end Either follow everyone to make fun, or you can''t toss me, or calm down. "Don''t argue..." Someone can''t wait to urge. Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue, smiled, thought about it and said, "well, in fact, I just want to ask, will you always love me..." "Wow -" "Ow, Ow!" "Hahaha, don''t argue, you cow!" "Wow... Don''t argue, you''re too straightforward... But I like this question, ha ha!" "Li Bian, don''t patronize blushing, answer quickly, answer quickly..." Li Xiaoyue''s face was burning red uncontrollably. She glanced at the corners of her mouth, looked at the crowd, and then looked at Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen took a deep look at Li Xiaoyue, and his mouth was not strong, but it was soft enough to make people smile. He never likes to be sloppy in his work. When she decides to act, she won''t be given a chance to flinch The first step is to show her intention, and the second step is to let her formally face the road to be taken between them. "Li Bian, answer quickly!" Someone can''t wait to urge again. Qiao Rui is careful and looks at Ye Chenyu. In fact, they can''t be blamed for gossip. The main thing is that there are some twists and turns between the three people. I really feel that there is a cat in my heart... It''s hard to scratch. Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen and saw his deep firmness in the bottom of his eyes. Finally, it turned into a vortex and rolled her in. "I don''t know how long the shelf life of the simplest feeling once was..." Li Xiaoyue said slowly, "but once some people fill your heart, it seems that there is no place for others." The box suddenly became quiet Li Xiaoyue converged his sight on Mo Shaochen''s face, smiled astringently at the corners of his mouth, looked around for a week and admitted generously, "I love this man, even if... I may not be able to be with him." Mo Shaochen''s smile deepened, and looking at Li Xiaoyue''s eyes was soft and outrageous. "If you want to know between me and my senior brother..." Li Xiaoyue shrugged slightly. "As you can see, if there is no accident, my wish will be achieved soon!" "Can I take your words as if I have caught up with you?" Mo Shaochen asked. Li Xiaoyue proudly raised his eyebrows, "another question?" She smiled, "it seems that the elder martial brother will turn to me again before I can answer..." The crowd was amused by Li Xiaoyue and teased Mo Shaochen one after another. At the same time, several people with delicate thoughts looked at Ye Chenyu one after another. Ye Chenyu didn''t have too many emotional fluctuations from beginning to end. It seems that the game is just a game. Just be happy. Li Xiaoyue began to turn the bottle. After several rounds, Mo Shaochen and the three of them didn''t have their turn again. Just when you think you can''t ask Ye Chenyu questions tonight, accidents always come with such surprises "I''ll go and finally catch Ye team!" The man patted the table and stood up directly. Looking at Ye Chenyu, he asked, "team ye, in addition to mother ye, who is the most important to you in this world?" I mean, who has a special and irreplaceable position in your mind... Right now, not in the future This question is very well asked, not men and women, but we all know what the purpose is. All eyes fell on Ye Chenyu, including those of Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue. Ye Chenyu didn''t look at everyone. He just looked at the beer can in his hand and showed an incomprehensible evil smile at the corners of his mouth "Brother Yu, if you want to play this game, you can''t cheat!" Qiao Rui said and looked at Li Xiaoyue with deep meaning. From exclusion to admiration for ye Chenyu, Qiao Rui was somewhat unwilling, and Li Xiaoyue went with Mo Shaochen. If you get married, you can divorce. Brother Yu is not bad. He is also a good match with Li Bian Although, it''s a bit immoral for him to pry into the corner like this. Ye Chenyu raised his eyes, and his sight just fell on Qiao Rui opposite, and the bottom of his eyes gradually deepened. Qiao Rui was not swallowed down by the control, and grin make complaints about Ye Chenyu''s eyes. "Ye team, in front of you, you are afraid that everyone will not have fun and have a lot of assists..." the person who turns the bottle grinned and said, "it''s your turn. We can laugh at you for a year!" "Just..." Everyone agrees. Mo Shaochen looked at Ye Chenyu deeply and said with a smile, "in fact, I really want to know." Li Xiaoyue frowned slightly, and his heart was uncontrollably mentioned to his throat. I don''t know why, she is a little afraid of Ye Chenyu Although, maybe she thinks too much. Ye Chenyu put down the beer can, sighed and slowly opened his mouth: "Shaochen!" "Ah?" Everyone didn''t hear clearly, or... When they heard clearly, they thought they had heard wrong and stared at Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu twists the beer can with his fingers and the evil spirit opens his mouth: "in addition to my mother, the person I value most is Shaochen..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Everyone was so surprised by Ye Chenyu''s answer that they could only give him a few points! Qiao Rui twitched uncontrollably at the corner of his mouth, "shit, brother Yu, don''t tell me that you really like men..." "The plot is too reversed?!" "I have the feeling of seeing the beginning but not guessing the end..." "Me too..." "But for Mao, I think ye team is full of straight men?!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Because of this sentence, they did not know how to react again. Li Xiaoyue also looked at Ye Chenyu in surprise. It wasn''t because she thought he had a problem with his orientation, or because she thought he would say it was her, not because she was embarrassed. I don''t know why, she felt that when he said "Shaochen", he exuded a faint feeling of sadness! "Cough..." someone pulled at the corner of his mouth, "well... Is it right now that I''m the only one who wants to know? What''s my feeling?" Someone mentioned that everyone''s eyes immediately fell on the party concerned... Mo Shaochen from ye Chenyu. "Me?" Mo Shaochen said softly. The crowd nodded. "Mo Bian," asked a lawyer, "how do you respond to officer Ye''s'' confession ''?" Chapter 1000 Mo Shaochen looked at Ye Chenyu faintly with a smile that people couldn''t understand. Everyone is waiting for the answer, one by one holding their breath. In that way, they suddenly become nervous because of waiting for the answer Li Xiaoyue looks at Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu She felt speechless between the two. Ye Chenyu took another sip of beer and then looked at Mo Shaochen''s eyes and fundus with evil charm and depth. "Why not..." Mo Shaochen took back his sight on Ye Chenyu, looked around for a week, and then said, "... You can talk later when the bottle turns to me!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Everyone looked confused and forced one by one. "Don''t argue, you''re too dark..." someone was dissatisfied. "This time is almost over. You can''t let everyone sleep because of an answer?" "Yes, yes!" Someone immediately agreed, "don''t argue, why don''t you calm our gossip hearts?" Mo Shaochen smiled and didn''t refuse, but he didn''t answer. Qiao Rui immediately rolled his eyes. "Come on, let''s be quick... If you don''t know your character, you can''t argue." Everyone is an activist. Even, in order to have more opportunities to argue with Mo, or ask why Ye Chenyu said Mo Shaochen When the bottle is transferred to others, it is basically a big adventure, or an easy big adventure. Unfortunately, it''s time for everyone to leave... Not to mention Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu, not even Li Xiaoyue. "Hey, it has become an eternal pending case!" "I think we should make an appointment as soon as possible to complete the remaining problems today..." "I agree with that!" After a while of being unwilling and trying to figure out how to solve this problem, everyone took a taxi and left. "That..." Li Xiaoyue looked at Ye Chenyu who was still standing at the door and whispered to Mo Shaochen, "elder martial brother, do you want to solve it first..." she pointed back and forth at the two people. Mo Shaochen finished his account, supported the bar with his arm, and said slowly with a smile in his mouth: "why, he''s afraid of his rival?" "..." Li Xiaoyue pulled out from the corner of his mouth, "elder martial brother, your joke is not funny at all!" Mo Shaochen nodded approvingly and looked at Ye Chenyu who took out the cigarette. "There are some problems you just want to know at this moment, and there is no way to solve... I''ll take you back first." Li Xiaoyue was in a dignified mood and wanted to say something, but he could bear it and nodded. When they left the club, Mo Shaochen went straight to Ye Chenyu, "it''s all right at the weekend. Make an appointment with blues?" "Good!" Ye Chenyu answered. "Shall we go together?" Li Xiaoyue asked. Ye Chenyu suddenly leaned forward and was so frightened that Li Xiaoyue subconsciously took a step back. The heel of his shoe almost fell down because of the unstable landing. If Mo Shaochen hadn''t been quick eyed and quick handed. "It seems... You don''t want to go with me at all!" Ye Chenyu took the cigarette in his mouth and said evil, "my apartment is nearby. Just walk over!" The last words Ye Chenyu said to Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen nodded and didn''t say much. He took Li Xiaoyue to the waiting car on the roadside. Seeing that everyone left, ye Chenyu stepped at random and disappeared in the dark path After walking for a long time, ye Chenyu stopped slowly. In front is a garden in the middle of the street, with sculptures everywhere. Under the soft light of the night, it is particularly peaceful. Among them, there is a couple who are looking at the two brothers and family playing on the ground. They laugh very happily... And happy! Ye Chenyu took out his mobile phone after watching it for a long time. He looked at the time. It should be an afternoon in Britain. He put out the cigarette butts in the trash can, went to the bench for rest, sat down and dialed Gu Beichen''s phone When Gu Beichen received the call, sister K had been in the operating room for five or six hours. In the corridor outside, the whole dignified was outrageous. If it weren''t for Da Jun and the cockscomb, I''m afraid the people in the hall would have to take things to seek revenge Although, they don''t know who the enemy is?! "I''ll answer the phone, huh?" Gu Beichen whispered to Jian mo. Jane nodded at the corner of her mouth, indicating that it didn''t matter to be alone. Gu Beichen glanced at them, then got up and went to the window at the end of the corridor. While answering the phone, he looked back at Jian Mo from time to time. "Huh?" Gu Beichen is light. Ye Chenyu lay back on his seat, his sight faintly crossed the gap in the shade of the tree and fell on the road, "Beichen, I''m greedy..." Gu Beichen narrowed his eagle eyes slightly. When the ink pupil became deeper and deeper, he slowly opened his mouth: "I''m going to talk to Shaochen?" "I don''t know..." Ye Chenyu sighed, "but I have an impulse!" Gu Beichen was silent and looked at Jian Mo again. Then he opened his thin lips and said, "why?" "Beichen," said Ye Chenyu, with a trace of complicated emotion in his eyes, "I don''t want to attend Shaochen''s wedding as a friend... I want to be my brother." He put a hint of self mockery on the corner of his mouth, "I want to be his family. I want him to know that in this world... He has a closer and same blood me besides you!" Gu Beichen looked out of the window. After a while, he said, "Chenyu, half the chance... Do you want to bet?" Ye Chenyu was silent and didn''t answer immediately. "Shaochen has been very independent since his aunt and uncle left..." Gu Beichen''s voice was faint. "Coupled with his choice of the lawyer industry, what he needs is calm and strong analysis. Many times, you don''t think too emotional!" "It''s different..." Ye Chenyu closed his eyes. "After all, Dad''s affair caused the car accident between Dad and his mother!" The indirect cause of his parents'' death is that he and his mother As a son of man, how can we be calm? "It''s not your style to worry so much!" Gu Beichen''s voice was slightly deep. "Moreover, with your contact, the bath hope under your heart will become stronger and stronger. Can you really control it?" The questioning made Ye Chenyu speechless "Instead of telling the truth without control..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes have narrowed into a line, "it''s better to find an appropriate time and make full preparations, isn''t it?" Ye Chenyu opened his eyes. The fundus of his eyes was already scarlet Gu Beichen did not continue to say, waiting for ye Chenyu to figure it out. Suddenly There was a restless voice behind him. Gu Beichen was startled at the bottom of his eyes, suddenly turned around and looked at Jian Mo''s position I saw a group of people gathered around the past. "I have something to deal with here. You decide to call me..." Gu Beichen said in a voice. Before ye Chenyu could speak, he hung up the phone and strode to Jian mo Chapter 1001 "Don''t be impulsive!" "It''s her. If it weren''t for her, how could sister K be alone last night?" "Yes... If sister K has something to do, I won''t finish with her first!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± "When are you making trouble here?" Dajun''s face was already cold. Looking at the cockscomb head protecting Jane Mo, his eyes sank, "all scattered!" "Brother Dajun, sister K has been in for so long... Aren''t you angry at all?" "Yes, sister K is because of this woman and her husband!" "We control her, at least the man will be used by us..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± All the people were talking, and Jane Mo looked at it quietly and didn''t answer. Gu Beichen is here. She''s not worried at all Besides, she doesn''t think what will happen to these people? If something happens to sister K, she will become a mob. I''m afraid the hall will be finished sooner or later Competition is fierce everywhere, especially in such a dark world. "How can I use it for you?" The cold and low voice sounded behind the crowd... The crowd subconsciously turned back and saw Gu Beichen standing there, with an undisguised haze on his cold, carved face. "Beichen..." cockscomb''s face was dignified and looked at Dajun. Gu Beichen completely ignored these people. He just crossed his eagle eyes Those people inexplicably seemed to have been scratched by a sharp blade, and they unconsciously gave way. Gu Beichen took a step and sat down next to Jian mo. he looked worried and remorseful and grabbed Jian mo. Jane Mo smiled and shook her head, indicating that she was all right. Having experienced so many things and seen Mo palace... She can still face this battle. Besides, these are ah Chen''s past. She has no reason to be afraid and resist Gu Beichen looked as if there were no one, but smiled at Jian Mo, then raised his eyes slightly, and looked at Da Jun with a warning at the bottom of his eyes Dajun''s mood is dignified, and the complaints of the people under him are naturally his. But outside the restaurant, Gu Beichen''s warning still echoed in his ears... He was too willful and pretended not to understand. As a person around sister K, Dajun handles things very quickly After a while, everyone dispersed with dissatisfaction but helpless mood. "Did you find out who did it?" Gu Beichen did not shy away from Jian Mo and looked at the cockscomb head and asked. The cockscomb head shook his head solemnly and looked at Jian Mo, "just now everyone was in a bad mood because there was no exact news..." After a pause, the cockscomb head looked at the crowd here, "Beichen, that..." "I won''t step in!" Gu Beichen directly interrupted the words of the cockscomb head. The eagle''s eyes were slightly biased and his eyes fell on his face. "If I had left, I wouldn''t interfere in anything at the hall meeting..." "But the hall meeting was established together, or you!" The cockscomb head is a little anxious. Gu Beichen took back his sight coldly. "The past is always the past..." his eyes became familiar, "chicken, we can only recall the past now, but we can''t go back to the past... Understand?" If there is a hidden meaning, it is indisputable. Jane moo smiled at the corner of her mouth and felt that it was not easy for her family to take care of the general manager Well, specifically, all kinds of overt and covert rejection of women! The cockscomb head bared his teeth secretly. Finally, without saying anything, he turned and went to Dajun "Ah Chen..." Gu Beichen gently clutched Jian Mo''s hand, "I''ll handle it, huh?" Jian Mo nodded with a smile, "I believe in President Gu''s ability..." Time, little by little. When the weather in Leeds gradually darkened, the door of the operating room finally opened "Doctor, how is the patient?" Dajun and others crowded forward one after another. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo also got up and walked over "The operation was successful," said the blonde doctor. "There were several knife wounds on the patient. This is not the most important... The most important thing is that her brain was hit hard and her blood pressure blocked her nerves..." The doctor sighed, "we have cleaned up, but there is still a small piece. Because of the location problem, this operation can''t support to clean up..." The crowd was as stunned as they listened to the heavenly book. Finally, Dajun bit his teeth, "doctor, please tell me the point!" "The point is..." the doctor looked helpless. "The congestion that has not been cleared is very troublesome, and the second operation is also very dangerous!" By implication, sister K''s situation is very bad. Jane Mo immediately frowned, and the woman''s sixth sense gave her an extremely strong uneasiness. Gu Beichen felt Jian Mo''s emotion, held her hand slightly tight, took a deep look at her, and began to communicate with the doctor Different from those of Dajun, the doctor obviously has a very relaxed state of communicating with Gu Beichen. But, speaking of the end, Gu Beichen''s face gradually dignified "Is there a doctor who has the greatest confidence in such an operation?" Gu Beichen finally asked. The doctor pondered, shook his head and said, "unless Aaron is fierce..." He said with a look of regret, "unfortunately, Aaron Li has gone to see God... Otherwise, he is a great candidate for this operation!" Jane Mo frowned and looked at Gu Beichen with doubts in the bottom of her eyes. Aaron?! Does it have anything to do with Yunze? "Follow up, I will follow up here..." the doctor and Gu Beichen nodded. "Of course, if you can have good suggestions, you can also come to me." Gu Beichen nodded. After the doctor left, he turned and looked at Dajun and said, "sister K has been sent to the ICU. Her condition is stable for the time being, but the congestion in her brain has not been taken out. We need to find a way..." "Beichen..." "I''ll find a way for the doctor," Gu Beichen interrupted Dajun. "As for the meeting, it''s still that sentence... I won''t intervene." Dajun and cockscomb looked at each other and nodded. "I''ll take Mo''er back to the hotel first. If anything happens, call me..." Gu Beichen said, ignoring everyone''s eyes, and left the hospital with Jian mo. On the way, Jane Mo asked, "ah Chen, Aaron Li is..." "Yunze''s dead brother." Gu Beichen sighed softly in his voice. "That cloud Ze......" Jane Mo also can''t take care of other people''s eyes, "is sister K''s operation sure?" After all, Li Yunze is a talented surgeon in cardiothoracic, pulmonary and brain. Jian Mo thinks that if sister K''s situation is not optimistic, he can try "Mo''er, the question now is not just whether Yunze can do this operation..." As Li Yunze''s brother''s best operation, Yunze has trouble in his heart. "But if this camp is over, not only sister K''s situation will be optimistic..." Jian Mo said, "there may be a breakthrough between Jinxi and Chen Yu, isn''t there?" Gu Beichen looked ahead. After a while, his voice became more and more dignified and said, "the Kaner of Yunze is not just his brother..." Chapter 1002 "Huh?" Jane frowned. Gu Beichen''s expression was dignified, but in a flash, he recovered his usual calm. Jane Mo did not continue to ask. She was not a very curious person. Besides, it may involve other people''s privacy Now, she is more concerned about the situation of sister K. After all, sister K came to ah Chen last night. No matter what the final situation is, if she really has any problems, ah Chen will blame herself even if she is indifferent "Do you think it''s possible if Yunze comes to cooperate with the operation?" Jane Mo thought for a while before she asked in a condensed voice. Gu Beichen gently rubbed Jian Mo''s hand with his fingers, and his drooping eyes narrowed the worries of the bottom of his eyes, "I opened my mouth, he naturally wants to come..." Jane nodded and stopped asking. Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at Jian mo. seeing that there was a faint worry on her face, he couldn''t help but put a shallow smile on the corners of his mouth and took her into his arms. "I''ll just worry about the rest, huh?" "Yes." Jane Mo answered, but she didn''t feel at ease at all. The car stopped at the gate of the hotel at the right time. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo got off the car. When the doorman saw them coming back, he smiled and said, "Sir, madam, someone left something for you at the front desk..." Jane Mo frowned and looked at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen shook his head at Jian Mo and nodded with the doorman before pulling Jian Mo into the hotel "Sir and madam, this is what a gentleman told you." The front desk said and handed a paper bag to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen opened it and there was a bottle of red wine inside. Jane Mo was slightly surprised, and then inexplicably crossed the man in the restaurant at noon Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at the red wine in his hand, Latu collection 1976... It''s really generous. "Ah Chen?" "It seems that some people don''t give up..." Gu Beichen grabbed the red wine and pulled Jian Mo to the elevator. "Do you want me to directly return the blues to him?" Jane Mo''s face was black. "It''s estimated that he just took a fancy to your blues and wanted to stimulate you." Gu Beichen smiled. While waiting for the elevator, the ink pupil gradually became deep and bottomless It seems that this man came for a purpose! ¡­¡­ "Brother Di, Gu Beichen has taken away the wine put on the front desk..." Shidi was sitting under the umbrella in the garden, and the light hit him softly, showing evil cunning. "Yes." Shi Di responded faintly, his fingers gently twisted the goblet, and the corners of his mouth hung a cold smile without temperature, "what''s the situation over sister K?" "I heard that the situation is not very optimistic..." The bottom of Shi Di''s eyes was stained with a shallow smile, and he listened to his faint mouth, "it''s really a woman who makes people uneasy. Just like that... Can survive." "Brother Di, if the matter between him and Gu Beichen invites night gate... I''m afraid the situation will not be very optimistic." "Night gate?" Shi Di sneered, "there are rules on the road. The night gate is unique, but it''s not covering the sky with one hand." "Then..." "Since sister K doesn''t show the evidence that Gu Beichen mixed the dark street, we''ll find it ourselves." Shi Diwei narrowed his eyes. "Go and contact Da Jun and say... We have an expert in brain surgery. Does he want... Or not?!" "Yes!" Shi Di gave a slight sign. The reporter bowed behind him and turned away. The night is soft, and the wind of summer night is like a woman''s hand, gently across her cheek. Shi Di raised his hand and sipped the red wine. The mellow smell in the mouth showed a intoxicating taste. "Gu Beichen, I really thought you would never come back in your life..." Shi Di smiled lightly, "welcome back!" As she spoke, Shi Di raised her hand slightly, raised her glass, and smiled deeply at the empty place, with a dark and strange look. ¡­¡­ Jane Mo slept a little uneasy this night When it was only a little brighter, she woke up She didn''t move and didn''t want to disturb Gu Beichen. She just kept her original posture and opened her eyes. I had a dream all night, but when I woke up, I couldn''t remember what I did. I don''t know if I think too much about sister K and Yunze before going to bed. I''m always vaguely uneasy "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen''s low voice came from his head, "why did you wake up so early?" "The jet lag hasn''t reversed..." Jane Mo talks nonsense. Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "HMM." Jane Mo left her mouth and was dissatisfied with the response of her family''s general manager Gu. "Can''t you stop your brain?" Gu Beichen let go of Jian Mo with a sigh. After turning on the bedside wall lamp, he got out of bed and poured her a glass of water. Jane Mo sat up. "I just feel like something is involved, but I don''t know where their key points are..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen, "ah Chen, I don''t know why. I always think the man in the restaurant didn''t appear for no reason yesterday, and he didn''t send red wine because he liked me!" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly. "Huh?" Jane Mo frowned, "well, what does that mean?" "Yes, he really came for a purpose..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes. "I asked boss Long''s people to check last night, so don''t worry about this, huh?" Jane murmured at the corners of her mouth and couldn''t do it. "Of course, if this mysterious man is for other reasons, I won''t be soft hearted if the purpose is you." Gu Beichen said half jokingly. Gu Beichen didn''t take it with him for the first time, but Gu Beichen didn''t take it with him for the first time It''s just that she hid her anxiety with drinking water. The "buzzing" vibration of the mobile phone suddenly came, and Jane Mo was suddenly startled because she was nervous. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and went to get the phone Looked at the call and picked it up. "Beichen, something''s wrong!" As soon as the phone was connected, there came the urgent voice of cockscomb head from the opposite side. Gu Beichen slightly twisted his eyebrows, "what''s the matter?" "After you left last night, several people and I left first... Now we came to hand over the shift, and Dajun had an accident..." After the cockscomb head picked a brief thing to say, he said in a condensed voice, "you, can you come to the entrance of the hall?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and began to speak slowly, "I''ll go there." After hanging up, Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and said, "there''s an accident over there. I''m afraid I''ll go there." "I''ll wait for you in the hotel!" Jane Mo said kindly. Gu Beichen came forward and leaned down on Jian Mo''s forehead and kissed, "don''t go out of the hotel. Boss Long''s people are already near the hotel, huh?" "I understand. Don''t worry about it..." Jane Mo nodded with a smile. "I won''t run around." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, changed his clothes and left the hotel. Just as he stepped into the elevator and stairwell, a figure appeared in time He looked at the direction of the elevator, then looked at Jian Mo''s room and walked ove Chapter 1003 After Gu Beichen left, Jian Mo was in no mood to continue to sleep. After simply going to wash, I plan to continue to write her love novel with Gu Beichen It hasn''t been updated these days. The following post originally scolded the male Lord, but now it has changed to scold her as the author Well, it means that the baby is in a mood, but she has to record every bit of her and ah Chen. Out of the bathroom, Jane Mo suddenly frowned and looked at the door. The slight sound is full of strange breath, that feeling Jane Mo''s first reaction was that someone was prying the door?! Thinking of this, Jian Mo subconsciously widened her eyes and hurried to get her mobile phone to Gu Beichen. But I haven''t got my cell phone yet. The door has been opened I saw a man with a baseball cap and a black mask standing there, completely the visual sense of kidnapping people on TV. Jane Mo tried to calm down, "who are you?" When she asked about the exit, the mobile phone had been quietly held in her hand and crossed the screen with her memory There are few numbers dialed on her mobile phone. As long as she can grope for one, she can ask for help successfully. Unfortunately, the other party obviously saw through Jian Mo''s reason at a glance. He pretended to be calm and thought carefully. Just before Jian Mo had time to respond, the man had robbed her mobile phone that she couldn''t dial out, and cut her backhand to the back The whole process is easy for the other party. For Jane Mo, she was caught off guard! "Where are you taking me?" Asked Jane Mo, gritting her teeth. The man didn''t speak, just took Jane Mo and went out Jane Mo didn''t cooperate at all, and ignored her arm hurt by the man''s rude actions. Can delay a moment, is a moment Although, it seems to be useless to delay. It seems that the phone call just now is obviously that the other party cheated ah Chen to start with her. However, whether this person is a member of the meeting or another group of people, Jane Mo is unknown. "Are you Dajun''s man?" Jane Mo asked deliberately and looked at the man''s face. Unfortunately, with her hat and mask, Jane Mo couldn''t see any expression of the man... Naturally, there was no way to know whether her temptation had any effect. "Or..." Jian Mo''s eyes were slightly cold. "Are you the group who hurt sister K?" Now, all she can think of is these two. Dajun''s people naturally caught her and threatened ah Chen to do something for Tang Well, she should not be in danger. She also believes that ah Chen can solve it. But if it''s the people who hurt sister K Jane Mo was spinning in her head, trying to find a situation that was good for her. Keren had been dragged to the door, and she found out sadly that at this time... If this person could avoid the Dragon boss''s person coming into the hotel, I''m afraid she was a little "bad luck"! "You let me go..." Jane Mo shouted loudly in English when she got to the corridor. "Who the hell are you? Let me go!" She tried to attract other people''s attention, but this time is when people sleep heavily. In addition, the sound insulation effect of the hotel is very good In other words, someone heard it and didn''t want to cause trouble. No one came out of the room at all. The man didn''t speak from beginning to end, just like a mute. Jane Mo struggled, even if she knew it was useless The man took Jane Mo to the stairwell. Jane Mo looked at the door of the stairwell and was a little desperate "Let her go!" Suddenly, when the man wanted to pull the staircase door, there was a voice behind him that was too cold to refuse. Jane Mo''s eyes lit up suddenly, and the familiar voice almost made her cry. She almost turned back with the man holding her. When she saw Shi Shaoqin standing there in his nightgown in the middle of the corridor, Jane Mo felt that she had never been so glad to see this man. Shi Shaoqin looked at Jian Mo''s happy eyes. On his beautiful face, he unconsciously shrouded in a faint smile. In a pair of long and narrow eyes, there was a deep charm. Step up and walk forward. Even though he was only wearing a nightgown and walking slowly... Shi Shaoqin gave people an unspeakable pressure. Even, as he approached, the whole corridor gradually filled with a depressing atmosphere. "Who are you?" The man holding Jane Mo asked. Jane Mo rolled her eyes secretly. This is her line If you don''t answer me, why should Shi Shaoqin answer you? Jane Mo secretly feigned Well, she''s completely backstage now. She''s not afraid of anything! Shi Shaoqin really didn''t answer. He didn''t even look at the man holding Jian mo The man took Jian Mo and subconsciously retreated because Shi Shaoqin was close. His face was on alert until there was no way back. "Let her go!" Shi Shaoqin spoke again, and his voice was a little cold. "If you want her, it depends on whether you have ben..." The man''s words suddenly stopped, and his eyes overflowed with panic. Almost instantly, he didn''t even see what was going on. Shi Shaoqin already held a gun and put it on his forehead. The gun is the smallest palm thunder, but its power can definitely blow his head out at such a close distance! "Let go!" A word, with a cold and domineering look down. The man was almost out of control and instinctively released Jane mo. Jian Mo hurried behind Shi Shaoqin and saw that he had withdrawn his hand Then Shi Shaoqin turned around and signaled Jian Mo to return to the room. At the same time, he had already raised his feet. With Shi Shaoqin around, Jian Mo is at ease Although, she wants to know very much now, why is he here, even it seems that he should also live on this floor?! Jane Mo''s thoughts deviated a little. When the bang came, she suddenly turned back and saw the man holding her kneeling on the ground with his stomach covered and curled up Just now, the man wanted to sneak attack, but Shi Shaoqin turned around and gave him a merciless kick. Looking at the man''s pain, it''s obvious that his strength is not light! "Get out!" Shi Shaoqin spoke coldly. The man didn''t even care about the pain in his abdomen, so he rushed to the stairwell "Just let him go?" Jane frowned. "The person arranged by your husband is outside the hotel..." Shi Shaoqin said coldly. "How did he get in?" Jane Mo asked subconsciously. Shi Shaoqin glanced at Jian Mo lightly, and a touch of emotion crossed his eyes, showing a trace of contempt. These people are obviously arranged in advance. As for how to take away after catching Jane Mo, they have their way But in the end, whether we can escape the eyes of night gate people depends entirely on our abilities. Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth, snorted coldly, glanced sideways at Shi Shaoqin, and went to her room "Mo''er..." Shi Shaoqin frowned and shouted. Jane Mo stopped, turned around and sneered at the corners of her mouth, "Qin Shao, have you ever heard that one pregnancy is stupid for three years?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Jane Mo''s smile on the corner of her mouth became more and more cold: "so it''s normal for you to despise me for not having a long brain." Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful handsome face was immediately shocked. Jian Mo was just happy because of his appearance, and his face was cold because of star. His heart was blocked "Mo''er..." "Ding!" Just as Shi Shaoqin was about to say something, the voice of the elevator arrived. Because the corridor was too quiet, the sound became particularly noticeable. Shi Shaoqin and Jian Mo subconsciously looked in the direction of the elevator Seeing Gu Beichen who had gone to the hall meeting, he came out Chapter 1004 "Ah Chen?!" Jane Mo whispered in surprise. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, and then his eyes fell on Shi Shaoqin After they looked at each other for a few seconds, Gu Beichen walked up. Gu Beichen took back his sight on Shi Shaoqin, looked at Jian Mo and asked, "is there a big problem?" "It''s all right..." Jane Mo shook her head and looked at Shi Shaoqin. "He''s here. You can''t think of anything!" Half joking, Jane Mo is obviously to ease the atmosphere. Gu Beichen looked at Shi Shaoqin again, "you are really near us..." The quiet words showed a touch of sarcasm. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, and the corners of his beautiful mouth raised slightly. There was still no temperature, "what''s the problem?" "No," Gu Beichen sneered. "At least... In order to reflect your value, you can be a bodyguard occasionally." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, and there was a trace of sadness on his beautiful face. "Shao Qin, you are very busy lately..." Gu Beichen''s voice has always been faint. "Still say, do you think life is too boring?" "Need to report to you?" Shi Shaoqin smiled lightly again, and his smile gradually faded away. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep, and when he couldn''t see to the end, his ink pupil suddenly gushed out a fierce examination. Shi Shaoqin looked at Gu Beichen and smiled again. Obviously, with provocation Jane Mo felt a strange smell running between the two men, not like an enemy or a friend. Hesitant to interrupt the confrontation atmosphere, Jane Mo looked around at the two men and smiled at the corners of her mouth. Gu Beichen felt Jian Mo''s uneasiness, restrained his confrontation eyes, and didn''t say anything to Shi Shaoqin. He just hugged Jian Mo and turned to his guest room "Ah Chen..." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered softly. Jian Mo looked back at Shi Shaoqin, who was still standing in place. He endured and didn''t continue to ask. Gu Beichen opened the door of the guest room. At the moment of embracing Jian Mo, he slightly deviated his sight and glanced at Shi Shaoqin Their footsteps did not stop. When the sound of knocking on the door came from Shi Shaoqin''s guest room, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo had entered the guest room and then closed the door. Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes and went to his room calmly. "I''m going to open the door..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice gently spilled over his beautiful lips. The sound of knocking on the door stopped. Shi Shaoqin waited a few seconds before opening the door Star Pu fan looked at his eyelashes, raised his small head, and stood in the porch with some dissatisfaction. "Stone..." star grunted. Shi Shaoqin smiled, closed the door and squatted down. "Wake up?" "No!" Star wrinkled his little nose. Shi Shaoqin came forward and picked up star. "Stone just went to protect an aunt..." "Aunt?!" Star instinctively brightened his eyes and looked at Shi Shaoqin without blinking, waiting for his answer. Shi Shaoqin looked at star with deep eyes. After a while, he nodded slightly. "Star wants aunt... To hug..." star jumped excitedly in Shi Shaoqin''s arms. "Not for the time being." Shi Shaoqin went to the guest room. "There are a lot of things that can''t be too deliberate, okay?" Star didn''t understand what Shi Shaoqin meant, but he also understood that he meant that he couldn''t see his aunt. All of a sudden, star''s small face collapsed and his pink mouth was puffed Shi Shaoqin looked at star''s lovely appearance and his sight became softer and softer. The little guy''s temper is getting worse and worse now "There will be a chance, huh?" Shi Shaoqin put star on the bed and gently covered him with a quilt. "It''s still early, go to sleep for a while..." Star blinked and still pursed discontentedly. Shi Shaoqin smiled softly, leaned over and kissed the little guy on the face, "stone is with you." After listening to this, star smiled on his little face and completely forgot the idea that he just wanted to see his aunt. ¡­¡­ "Why did you suddenly turn back?" Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen and asked. "Don''t worry, you''ll come back." Gu Beichen said faintly. Jane Mo lowered her eyes, smiled, shrugged her shoulders, teased her and said, "I feel like I have a little black constitution..." Gu Beichen came forward, took Jane Mo into his arms, said softly but hoarsely, "when sister K''s situation is stable, we''ll leave." "But her operation..." "I''ll contact Yunze later and find a good intracranial doctor for consultation." Gu Beichen said gently, "although I''m not worried about what danger you will really have, I can''t afford a just in case..." The last words showed the fear of being careful. Jian Mo was astringent, looked up at Gu Beichen and changed the topic, "you seem to know that Shi Shaoqin is here?" "It''s also a guess..." Gu Beichen said faintly. "I think something''s wrong with them from London Shaochen." He didn''t think that Shi Shaoqin commanded by remote control in Mo palace. Jane Mo slightly opened some distance and looked curious, "why did he... Follow us?" Gu Beichen frowned and didn''t speak. No one can guess Shi Shaoqin''s mind However, it''s true that he won''t hurt Mo''er now. The most important thing is that now someone forces him to intervene in the affairs of the road... No matter what the purpose is, it''s always bad. Boss Long''s people have been involved in the hall meeting. If they can''t deal with the mysterious man at that time, Shi Shaoqin will deal with it... He is also happy to relax and stay with Mo''er. Of course, Gu Beichen didn''t tell Jian Mo about it. First, it''s unnecessary. Second, he doesn''t want her to worry about her wishful thinking. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. Today''s news is undoubtedly occupied by two things. One is that the handover of the captain of the Los Angeles special police force, the name Ye Chenyu, has also officially attracted the attention of many people. Another is that emperor group has successfully acquired more than five enterprises. These five companies, we found, were all companies that had held a news conference on new projects a while ago. There is speculation from the outside world that the emperor''s big move is to fully enter all industries or to start further expansion. When it comes to acquisition, naturally, we have to mention Xiao Jing, from the special assistant to the president to the vice president of the emperor. No matter how much public opinion outside, it seems that this person''s position on Gu Beichen''s side has never wavered. The most important thing is that this person''s ability is fully reflected in this acquisition. "Just sent it by the personnel department," Susan put a folder in front of Xiao Jing. "This is the candidate for your secretary. There will be an interview at two o''clock. Would you like to go there in person?" "Who can you choose?" Xiao Jing grinned to please. Susan sneered, "when you finish chenshao one day and take his seat, you will be equipped with my Secretary..." Chapter 1005 Make complaints about what is the difference between me and that position? "The difference is... You have a more deputy title, and you can''t instruct Chen to do less!" Susan held back her smile. "I said, you can choose your own way. Kneeling, you have to pretend to go down with a smile..." Xiao Jing immediately fell on the table and wailed, feeling that the people around him had no love. "You bully me one by one..." "Stop flirting there..." Susan rolled her eyes. "Decide whether to go to the interview by yourself or let the personnel department decide by itself?" Xiao Jingshou casually turned over the folder. Except for the name on the first page, he didn''t see any of the rest. "They can choose by themselves..." Xiao Jing had a headache. "Anyway, they just came to deal with some daily chores." If it really involves confidential information, it''s naturally handled by Susan. "It''s up to you..." Susan took the folder and turned away. "By the way, I''ll go out later..." Xiao Jing sat up, looked at Susan and said. Susan turned her head and nodded with a smile. "Vice president, actually... You don''t have to tell me!" Looking at Xiao Jing''s rigid face, Susan simply laughed, then proudly raised her steps and walked out "Suffered tons of damage!" Xiao Jing''s wailing voice came, "I was fooled by Chen Shao. You can laugh all your life..." Susan kept walking, but the smile deepened around her mouth. At noon, Xiao Jing didn''t eat in the company, and Susan was alone. When Shen Chu saw her alone, he simply sat and ate with her. "Vice President Xiao is out?" Shen Chu asked casually. Susan nodded. She didn''t hate Shen Chu anymore A serious and assertive woman is always easy to be recognized by others. "Secretary su..." the manager of the personnel department also sat down with the food. "Did vice president Xiao read the personnel information? Did you focus on something you like a little?" Susan shook her head. "He didn''t even look." "..." the manager of the personnel department forced hard on his face, "why does the Secretary want to see every day... Isn''t vice president Xiao going to pick it?" "Personal advice, don''t be too rigid..." Shen Chu supported his chin and said, "Vice President Xiao doesn''t hang up with the president at first sight. Moreover, I think it''s difficult for manager Zhang to choose another secretary su." Manager Zhang twitched in the corner of his mouth and looked at Susan. "I naturally don''t have such an eye for the person selected by the President... Moreover, how many young people can be so atmospheric and stable now with the ability of secretary Su?" It''s not boasting. Susan has been following Gu Beichen for so many years. She has learned many advantages. "Everyone is trained from new people," Susan said calmly. "However, vice president Xiao really doesn''t like being very rigid. Ability is on the one hand, brain flexibility is on the other hand!" Manager Zhang nodded thoughtfully, "this time, there are two or three in line with this. At the final interview in the afternoon, we will study it in detail..." Susan and Shen Chu looked at each other. They smiled and then turned off the topic After Xiao Jing went out, he never returned to the company. Gu Beichen is not here. He basically has to do everything himself, both internally and externally. Coupled with the full launch of the project in the second half of the year, the natural meal can not be less. Susan was about to clean up after work when she received a call from Xiao Jing, "what''s the matter?" "There''s a bureau in the evening. Why don''t you come with me?" Xiao Jing asked pleasantly. "No..." Susan proudly took her bag and wanted to leave. Xiao Ku cried. "It''s a little strange for me to go alone. Besides, you are at least my temporary secretary... Accompany me to participate in such a bureau calculation work." Susan pressed the elevator. "Sorry, vice president Xiao... Your secretary has been recruited, so you can invite her to accompany you." "Even if I get it, I''ll come to the Bureau before I see it... If I don''t know anything and screw it up, I''ll have a headache!" Xiao Jing turned his eyes. Susan looked helpless. "Then go alone. I''m going on a blind date in the evening... I''m not free!" After that, Susan didn''t give Xiao Jing the chance to entangle, and had already hung up the phone. "Blind date?" Xiao Jing tilted his mouth and said with a groan, "I''m not tired of dating every day with this excuse..." Xiao Jing threw away the phone and thought of finding someone to accompany him Suddenly Xiao Jing''s eyes suddenly gathered and looked at the roadside. A girl with a backpack was looking around, and her pupils widened. I didn''t find you. You hit the muzzle of the gun first Xiao Jingsong loosened his seat belt, opened the door and got out of the car. Zhao Qianyu looked at the store on the street. Suddenly, it was dark in front of him and was blocked by someone. Tilt your head, look up The sound of "hissing" sucked back secretly. Zhao Qianyu''s first reaction was to turn around and run away. However, the talent has action, and her wrist has been shackled by the big palm, holding the momentum she wants to run. "Want to run?" Xiao jingleng hissed, and his face was shrouded in haze. "I''m afraid it won''t be so easy this time." Zhao Qianyu grinned back and smiled, but his smile was a little stiff. "That, handsome... Do you know me?" Zhao Qianyu fanned his eyes, "although I''m happy to be pulled by a handsome man, but I don''t know you..." "No?" Xiao Jing said dangerously, "I don''t mind reminding you, Wang, Cui and Hua!" Oh Zhao Qianyu couldn''t stand it. He secretly vomited. At the beginning, he really had such a name. Every time he recalled it, goose bumps fell to the ground. "Wang Cuihua? Who is that?" Zhao Qianyu looked innocent. "I said handsome boy. I know I''m beautiful and invincible... But it''s not your way to chat up?" Xiao Jing listened to her eloquence and ran the train with a cold face. "However, I admit that because of this name, you successfully attracted my attention..." Xiao Jing didn''t say anything, but listened to her continue to talk about things. "Ah?!" Zhao Qianyu suddenly looked at everyone behind Xiao Jing and said, "Mr. Gu, why are you here?" Xiao Jing looked back reflexively Just when wondering how Chen Shao could appear here, there was a sharp pain on his arm. He subconsciously loosened his hand, and the wrist that had been shackled had been pulled away When Xiao Jing felt that he had been fooled, Zhao Qianyu had run away and waved his hand towards him Even, he blew him a provocative kiss! Xiao Jing stood where he was, hardly knowing how to describe his mood. He was cheated twice by a little girl?! Xiao Jing''s whole mood is not beautiful because of this cognition and even Zhao Qianyu''s provocation! And such an ugly mood lasted until the next day, but it didn''t get better "Vice President Xiao, you seem to be in a bad mood..." Susan looked at Xiao Jing''s gloomy face and asked jokingly. Xiao Jing glanced sideways at her and didn''t intend to say anything. He will never "show off" the black history played by a little girl twice! Susan originally wanted to care about Xiao Jing. Before she spoke, the interior line of the secretary room rang. She answered the phone and then looked at vice president Xiao, who was paralyzed on the sofa, "your new secretary is coming..." After a while, the sound of arrival came from the elevator. Xiao Jing got up and went outside. When he saw the new secretary who came up with manager Zhang, he first stared, then looked at Zhao Qianyu and hissed Yesterday, the enemy''s road was narrow This is a trap today?! Chapter 1006 Different from yesterday''s encounter on the street, but also different from the previous "rush" encounter in the resort hotel Today''s Zhao Qianyu wears a fitting ol suit that is not too old-fashioned. He has gathered some cunning under the flexibility. And that pair of black framed eyes obviously added a bit of composure to her. That kind of clean smell, which was not long after entering the society, almost confused people''s eyes. "Deputy general manager Xiao," said manager Zhang, looking at Zhao Qianyu, "this is your new secretary, Zhao Qianyu." Xiao Jing didn''t speak. He just smiled sarcastically at the corners of his mouth. His eyes looked at Zhao Qianyu and gradually became deep. "Hello, vice president Xiao!" Zhao Qianyu''s voice was clean, pushed the black frame eyes on the bridge of his nose and bowed slightly. Xiao Jing didn''t speak. He just looked at Zhao Qianyu and said after a while, "Oh, it''s Zhao Qianyu!" "Yes, vice president Xiao!" Zhao Qianyu smiled shyly at the corners of his mouth. He smiled at the corners of his lower lip. Through his glasses, he could see her pure eyes. Xiao Jing''s mouth was filled with a faint smile of evil sycophants. Such a smile had a strange ridicule. Manager Zhang is a little uneasy. Xiao Jing''s momentum has not changed from special assistance to vice president. However, Xu Shi has stayed with Gu Beichen for a long time, and there is always some kind of invisible pressure. Susan looked up and down at Zhao Qianyu. From the appearance, it was very good As for the inner... It should also be a good ability to screen layer by layer and finally become secretary Xiao Jing. It''s just Susan looked at Xiao Jing and frowned slightly. Something is wrong with Xiao Jing Xiao Jingke didn''t take care of Susan''s measurement or manager Zhang''s uneasiness. He just looked at Zhao Qianyu with sharp and familiar eyes. Zhao Qianyu was able to face Xiao Jing calmly at the beginning, but gradually, under the light of his eyes, he became a little overwhelmed She secretly glanced at manager Zhang, trying to make him break such rigidity. Obviously, at the moment, manager Zhang has a feeling that he can''t protect himself. He doesn''t want to be the first to speak "Xiao... Vice president Xiao..." Zhao Qianyu shouted timidly. Xiao Jing spilled a cold hiss from the corner of his mouth and raised his feet in time Zhao Qianyu only felt the strong force coming on her face. She grinned secretly. When Xiao Jing was about to approach her, she subconsciously took a step back. Seeing her like this, Xiao Jing simply kept walking and continued to approach Zhao Qianyu was about to cry. He could only retreat by instinct until his body leaned against the wall. Susan''s eyebrows frowned tighter, "Vice President Xiao?" Her voice reminded her that her eyes were full of doubts. Xiao Jing stopped, looked at Zhao Qianyu and said with a sneer, "I saw me running yesterday... How dare you appear in front of me so openly today?" "Ah?!" Zhao Qianyu was stunned by the question and fanned his eyes. He forgot to close his mouth because of surprise. "Pretend to be innocent now?" Xiao Jing said coldly, returning her words to her yesterday, "if you''re trying to attract my attention, you''ve succeeded..." As soon as Zhao Qianyu heard this, he immediately reacted and said seriously with humiliation on on his face: "Vice President Xiao, I''m here to be your secretary, not to attract your attention..." After the interview from Emperor Group yesterday, I went back to the rental house and didn''t go out again... If I remember correctly, you didn''t show up during the interview "Really?" Xiao Jing Leng hum, "what ghost did I meet on Fuhua road at more than five o''clock yesterday afternoon?" Zhao Qianyu frowned and looked at Xiao Jing curiously for a while before he suddenly widened his eyes. "Why, remember?" Xiao Jing''s eyes were full of danger, "or should I remind you... The resort hotel?!" "Vice President Xiao, have you seen my twin sister?" Zhao Qianyu didn''t listen to what Xiao Jing said at all, but suddenly became worried, "where did you meet her? I''ve been looking for her for several years..." "..." Xiao Jing looked at Zhao Qianyu''s eager expression and frowned, "twin sister?" Zhao Qianyu''s eyes were red and nodded quickly, "my sister had an accident before. Although she was finally saved, she became very depressed... Just three years ago, she suddenly left a note and ran away from home. There has been no news..." As she spoke, her eyes were already filled with water mist. In that way, she was excited and worried. Manager Zhang and Susan looked at each other. Both of them were confused by the mysterious plot and didn''t know how to react. "As like as two peas, you are sure to see the same girl as me," she said. Zhao Qianyu sniffed, obviously nervous and asked. Xiao Jing looked at Zhao Qianyu and gradually deepened his eyes, "HMM." "Well... Is she good?" Xiao Jing thought of the one who stole the wallet from the resort hotel and played with him yesterday "Good, good!" Xiao Jing''s voice was a little strange. "It''s not only good, it''s very good." Then he turned and walked to the office. When he passed manager Zhang, he said coldly, "just her..." "Yes!" Manager Zhang answered, holding his heart all the time, and then put it down slightly. Susan glanced at Zhao Qianyu and turned around to follow Xiao Jing into his office Manager Zhang hurried to Zhao Qianyu. "Go and clean up quickly. If you don''t understand anything, remember to ask Secretary su." "Zhao Yu grunted......". Manager Zhang shook his head and turned into the elevator. Suddenly, Zhao Qianyu was the only one left in the corridor "You seem to have forgotten to tell me where the office is!" Zhao Qianyu murmured. She didn''t move either. She just glanced at Xiao Jing''s office before. There was no sadness at the bottom of her eyes, but a trace of cunning pride. Taking out his mobile phone, Zhao Qianyu quickly sent a text message: he has entered the "enemy" and won him. It''s just around the corner! The text message quickly replied: sister, will you be schizophrenic like this? Zhao Qianyu looked at Xiao Jing''s office and no one came out: No, because it was all me, ha ha! After sending, Zhao Qianyu received his mobile phone, and a pair of "clever" continued to stand in place, waiting to claim In Xiao Jing''s office, the atmosphere was dignified. Susan frowned after listening to Xiao Jing about the resort hotel. "Whether it''s her sister or her... Do you still keep her?" "What she said is really the best, if not..." Xiao Jing''s face was shrouded in a dangerous atmosphere, his eyes were slightly raised, and when he looked at Susan, his voice was dark and slowly said, "the enemy, stay around, can we have better control!" Susan shrugged and had no objection to Xiao Jing''s decision. "I''ll arrange..." Susan said and went out of Xiao Jing''s office. Sure enough, Zhao Qianyu stayed where she was, and her eyes were cramped when she came out. Susan arranged for Zhao Qianyu to be next door to her office. After explaining what she needed to deal with, it was almost noon. "The emperor eats with his employee card. You are the top floor staff. You can choose all the restaurants of the emperor freely..." After Susan explained, she turned back to her office... Took her cell phone and sent a text message to Gu Beichen. Chapter 1007 Gu Beichen read the report of Susan''s profile. The eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly and then replied to the past: Xiao Jing grasped it himself. Susan was not surprised by Gu Beichen''s reply. After all, a new secretary is absolutely impossible to get involved in the confidential affairs of the group. Zhao Qianyu''s first year was basically to deal with some sundries It''s a secretary. In fact, to put it bluntly, it''s a secretary assistant. It''s five o''clock in the morning He didn''t disturb Jane Mo''s sleep, but lay there with his brain running at full speed. When he came back from the hospital, he was worried about what might happen, so he found boss Long''s people to set up around the hotel But after leaving the hotel for a while, he felt uneasy and turned around Call the people at Yemen to help ah Ji. He has come back. After the last car accident, he can''t tolerate any accident Although he knew that no matter who the other party was, it was impossible to take Mo''er out of the hotel in any way, he still came back uneasily. I was not surprised to see Shaoqin, but I also thought that if there was a dispute... Even if they couldn''t take it away, Mo''er might be hurt. Thinking of this, Gu Beichen frowned. At the right time, the mobile phone screen flashed. Gu Beichen picked up a text message sent by the people at the night gate: Chen Shao, the man who wanted to hold Mrs. Shao pried his mouth, but there was no valuable information. Gu Beichen''s eyes sank: Hmm! Someone helped me check. The man who invited Mo''er red wine in the western restaurant opposite the hotel at noon the day before yesterday. Night gate reply: reply before noon. Gu Beichen didn''t reply to the text message again. He just put his mobile phone aside. Gradually, his sight darkened ¡­¡­ In the early morning, when the first ray of sunlight shines into the house, star wakes up. "Stone..." star rubbed his eyes and kissed Shi Shaoqin on the cheek before sitting up. "Wait, you and Qingqing leave first, huh?" Shi Shaoqin spoke faintly. Star tooted his mouth and his little face was dependent on Shi Shaoqin, "no!" Shi Shaoqin rubbed star''s head with a smile, "I''ll meet you after I deal with things..." paused, "well, we haven''t returned to Mo palace for a long time. Your sunflowers should be very tall." As soon as star heard this, his eyes lit up in an instant, "Huahua..." Shi Shaoqin thought, "some of them should already have flower plates." "Back to the ink palace... Giggle..." star immediately smiled brightly, "go find Qingqing!" Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were deep, took the mobile phone, and his slender jade like fingers quickly drifted on the screen. After a while, the mobile phone had been connected to the monitoring of this floor There was no Tokyo in the quiet corridor. Shi Shaoqin just put his mobile phone aside and took star to wash first. By the time it was washed out, Qingqing was already waiting in the room. "Qin Shao, young master!" Qingqing said hello. "Pay attention when you go out," Shi Shaoqin looked at star, who looked for the clothes he wanted to wear. "Don''t let Gu Beichen see it." "I understand." Qingqing answered, and then went to help star change clothes. Shi Shaoqin looks at the monitor with his mobile phone. Generally, this time, Jian Mo and Gu Beichen should be the time to get up The bottom of Shi Shaoqin''s eyes gradually faded. He was familiar with the work and rest of Jian Mo and Gu Beichen?! Qingqing cleans up star and looks at Shi Shaoqin with star in her arms. Shi Shaoqin nodded slightly, kissed star first, and then said softly, "remember what I said?" Star''s small face was full of xiaoaojiao, "you can''t lift stones in front of anyone..." Shi Shaoqin''s smile deepened a little, and his doting at the bottom of his eyes was not hidden. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo are both smart people, and Jian Jie''s genes are very good... Star, naturally not bad. Although he is still so young, it seems that... As long as he can understand what you say, he can remember clearly. Shi Shaoqin motioned to Xia Qingqing, who left with star in her arms. There are people outside the night gate, plus Gu Beichen''s doubts about him... Shi Shaoqin must do it just in case. After cutting off the monitoring, Shi Shaoqin called the people below, "the two families arranged in advance go through the departure procedures together..." "Yes!" There was a reply on the other side of the phone, and Shi Shaoqin hung up indifferently. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles, Yue law firm. Li Xiaoyue looked at the file in his hand. It was a man who had been wronged in prison for more than ten years who asked for an appeal and investigated the police who had "recklessly died" without finding out the truth. "Sister Yue, many people don''t answer this case..." Chu ran flipped the file and said with some worry, "I heard that there is someone on this investigation Li Xiaoyue looked up at Chu ran and said, "the party just graduated from high school, was the first prize in science and entered the highest University... But in the end, he was wronged and went to prison without argument, wasting more than ten years..." Chu ran closed her mouth tightly. "How many decades of life?" Li Xiaoyue asked, "besides, he spent the most important ten years of his life at such a beautiful age. Can the material and monetary compensation buy back those time?" The most important thing is, how promising is it that the top student in science is admitted to the highest university? If it wasn''t for his strong will, how could he appeal again and again in prison just for an innocence?! "But..." Chu ran was still worried. Li Xiaoyue laughed with self mockery, "Chu Ran has never experienced such darkness and will never experience that pain." She just collapsed in a short time after being framed, not to mention an 18-year-old fancy boy? Mo Shaochen stood at the door of Li Xiaoyue''s office and looked at Li Xiaoyue deeply... Without missing all the emotions on her face. "Are you sure you want to answer?" Mo Shaochen spoke softly. "Don''t argue!" Chu ran turns around and looks at Mo Shaochen in surprise. "Elder martial brother..." Li Xiaoyue said, "you, don''t you think I should answer?" Mo Shaochen shook his head with a smile. "This is not whether I think I should or not, but... Why do you choose criminal defense?" In the lawyer industry, many people will erase the initial blood under the social and interests. But someone will stick to it "I want to answer!" Li Xiaoyue said firmly. Mo Shaochen smiled and nodded, "I''ll be your deputy..." "Ah?!" Li Xiaoyue and Chu ran were surprised at the same time. Mo Shaochen slightly raised his eyebrows, "why, I''m not qualified?" "..." Chu Ran has convulsed in the corners of his mouth. "Mo Bian, you are too qualified, not unqualified!" Li Xiaoyue also looked at Mo Shaochen strangely. They just looked at each other Chu ran only felt that she was in the middle, and the strong current was about to blow her away. "Well, I''ll sort out the data first..." Chu ran grinned and hurried away with the file in her arms. Mo Shaochen walked in at the right time, "have you had lunch?" "Why did elder martial brother call me a deputy?" Li Xiaoyue spoke almost at the same time as Mo Shaochen. "With me, it''s convenient to act..." Mo Shaochen smiled and joked, "after all, I''m also someone above!" Li Xiaoyue immediately felt warm. For her, unconditional support is more important than anything! Chapter 1008 "I''ll invite my senior brother to lunch..." Li Xiaoyue''s eyes were slightly frivolous and made a soft arc. Mo Shaochen raised his eyebrows. "In fact, I''m waiting for you." Li Xiaoyue laughed, got up, took his bag and went out "Mo Bian, Li Bian..." Chu ran looked at the two people coming out with sharp eyes and asked, "are you going out for lunch?!" "Need to bring you lunch?" Asked Mo Shaochen. Chu ran shook her head. "I''ve ordered takeout," she winked. "Besides, you two... Ha ha, I don''t know when to come back. I can''t stand being hungry!" Mo Shaochen heard the little girl''s teasing and didn''t say anything, but smiled faintly. It was Li Xiaoyue who glared at each other. "Hey, Chu ran..." a lawyer just recruited by the law firm looked curiously at the two people who had just gone out, "sister Yue and Mo argue that they are... In love?" "It''s so obvious, don''t you think?" Chu ran tilted her lips and went to copy with the information in her arms. Li Xiaoyue and Mo Shaochen didn''t go far either, because the venue of the law firm was provided by Gu Beichen, the location was very good, and there were many places to eat nearby. "The spicy fish in this restaurant is excellent. Elder martial brother is good at spicy food. You can try it..." said Li Xiaoyue, who had entered the restaurant with Mo Shaochen. It''s a little past dinner by now, and several tables can be seen empty in the restaurant. "The small table is gone. If you don''t mind, can you sit at the big table first?" Asked the waiter. "It doesn''t matter..." "OK, please follow me!" The waiter said and took two people inside. "Chenyu?!" Mo Shaochen suddenly whispered. Li Xiaoyue looked with his eyes Ye Chenyu caught an unlit cigarette in his hand. His fingers beat on the table intentionally or unintentionally, and his other hand was holding a mobile phone. He didn''t know what to look at? "Let''s go and sit at that table..." Mo Shaochen said to the waiter, and already motioned Li Xiaoyue to go with him. When someone approached, ye Chenyu subconsciously looked up and saw that they were two people, with an evil smile from the corners of his mouth, "why didn''t you come to dinner until now?" "It''s time to discuss a case..." Mo Shaochen gentlemanly pulled a chair for Li Xiaoyue. After she sat down, he sat down beside her. "How can you eat here?" None of the three seemed to care, and the way of seating changed. "Patrol here, search the nearby food, say this spicy fish is good, come and try it!" Ye Chenyu said casually and has received his mobile phone. "Xiao Yue also specially recommended this..." Ye Chenyu smiled at the corners of his mouth, with a touch of deep meaning across his eyes. He asked the waiter to add several dishes, half of which were Li Xiaoyue''s favorite and half of which were Mo Shaochen''s favorite Li Xiaoyue and Mo Shaochen looked at each other, and then both looked at Ye Chenyu. "What''s the matter?" Ye Chenyu was a little hairy when seen by two people. "In foreign countries, everyone eats Western food!" Mo Shaochen said without hesitation. Ye Chenyu immediately understood and glanced at Li Xiaoyue with an evil smile. "Some people say in front of Chu ran every day what dishes they miss in China... And then heard Chu ran gossip about you on the way." he looked at Mo Shaochen again. "You know, I have a good memory." "Really?" Mo Shaochen slightly raised his eyebrows and looked at the bottom of his eyes with professional characteristics. "Otherwise?" Ye Chenyu smiled, "I have a crush on you?" "That''s possible..." Mo Shaochen didn''t change his face. "After all, I can rank second in your mind!" "I can''t help falling in love with you..." Ye Chenyu shrugged easily. "Few lawyers can cooperate seamlessly without what I say or even running in in in advance." Mo Shaochen looked deeper and deeper and wanted to see through the authenticity of Ye Chenyu''s words Unfortunately, this man has been undercover for so many years. People can''t see through his emotions and can''t tell the truth of his words. "You should know..." Ye Chenyu suddenly changed his evil spirit and leaned down slightly. "Between people, it depends on the edge of the eye." Mo Shaochen restrained his eyes, "also..." He should be a little casual. While dealing with the tableware for Li Xiaoyue, he said, "tomorrow night''s blues, don''t forget." He raised his eyes. "I hope you have no special task tomorrow night!" In a word, it blocked Ye Chenyu''s back road. Ye Chenyu grinned secretly. It''s too tired to talk to the lawyer Especially lawyers like Mo Shaochen! Especially, he was too impulsive that day. He drank too much wine and had fat courage! Thinking of this, ye Chenyu had a headache, but the look on his face didn''t leak out at all. "Nature." Ye Chenyu answered casually. "How do you feel..." Li Xiaoyue timely said, "you will have a ''struggle'' tomorrow night?" "Men''s business!" "Men''s business!" Ye Chenyu and Mo Shaochen spoke almost at the same time. Suddenly, they frowned slightly and looked at each other. Li Xiaoyue looked at Ye Chenyu and Mo Shaochen and said, "seriously... How do I feel that there is an unspeakable secret between you two!" Mo Shaochen frowned slightly and looked at Li Xiaoyue. Ye Chenyu pulled at the corners of his mouth and looked a little strange. And his strange look didn''t escape Mo Shaochen''s light A lunch, three people eat very relaxed, after all, already very familiar. "I heard there''s a case in the Bureau. Are you interested?" Ye Chenyu looked at Li Xiaoyue. "Yes." Li Xiaoyue answered. Ye Chenyu looked at Mo Shaochen, "that case is a little tricky?!" "Well, so I''ll be Xiao Yue''s deputy..." Mo Shaochen took the fish to Li Xiao Yue''s plate. "Well, that''s OK!" Ye Chenyu nodded, and then didn''t say more about work. In the end, his current status is inappropriate to discuss the case with their two lawyers, and more people will be involved in the end However, at this moment, no one thought that a pull of radish would bring out the mud. In the end, this case will "involve" all three people After dinner, the three broke up. After Mo Shaochen sent Li Xiaoyue back to the law firm, he returned to his lawyer and explained the distribution of the recent case. He also went to the case where Li Xiaoyue wanted to sue. Everyone is busy. In the twinkling of an eye, it''s time to get off work. "Patrol at night. Remember to call me if you have anything..." After explaining to the night patrol, ye Chenyu walked to his car. Just opened the door, the phone rang "Mom!" "When will you come back and I''m ready to cook?" Mother Ye''s voice came with a smile. "Just got off work, ready to go..." Ye Chenyu started the car, "you fry it, it''s almost home." "OK." Ye Yu''s mother hung up at the villa. As soon as I entered the door, the smell of home food came to my nostrils. Ye Chenyu went to wash her hands and came out. Mother Ye just put the last soup on the table. When mother Ye handed the rice to Ye Chenyu, she asked in a dignified tone, "I heard Beichen say, are you going to talk to Shaochen?" Chapter 1009 Ye Chenyu took the bowl, thought about it and nodded. "Mom, is there something wrong with my psychology?" Ye Chenyu took a mouthful of rice into his mouth and said something indistinctly, "on the one hand, I don''t want to disturb his previous kindness to his father, and on the other hand, I want to say it greedily!" Mother Ye filled herself with rice. "If I wasn''t worried about what Shaochen would do to your father, in fact, I want you to say." After a pause, mother Ye frowned, "but Shaochen..." "Mom, I know proper!" Ye Chenyu''s voice was very casual. "I drank too much that day and had a little brain fever." "Yes." Mother Ye nodded. "I just want to remind you that the final decision is still in your hands... Besides, in my private heart, I still hope you can recognize each other." "I know what mom means." Ye Chenyu said with a smile. Mother Ye glared at Ye Chenyu angrily, "eat, it''s all right tonight, just sleep here." "OK..." Ye Chenyu answered. While eating, he turned a thousand times in his heart. Sometimes, if you don''t think about it, you won''t think about it. But once you start thinking about something, you can''t control it. Sitting on the sofa, ye Chenyu looked at the legal channel, but his mind was thinking about tomorrow night''s blues. Mom knew what he was worried about, so she reminded him at the dinner table. In fact, he is still sober But sometimes he can''t control what will happen if he is so sober. ¡­¡­ On a midsummer night, there is a gentle wind blowing on my face. Su Jun leaned under a locust tree in the yard with his hands in his pocket. It was the season when the locust flowers were in bloom. When the wind blew, the air was filled with a faint aroma. "I''ll leave the next day after listening to your concert..." J looked at Jian Jie. "Why don''t you go to Tibet with me?" "No," said Jane Jie proudly. "I''m going to do a world tour with uncle!" "Then I''ll come back and bring you something fun." "Well, good!" Jane Jie obviously has a lack of interest. J stopped and looked at Jane Jie, who was a little taller, "Hey, why don''t you have spirit all night?" Jian Jie stopped and looked back... There was helplessness on Gu Beichen''s reduced face. "Do you think I''ve invaded the wrong place and I''ll be happy to see something I don''t like very much?" Jane Jie looked at J with a disgusted face. J smiled, "so hackers should have a strong heart..." Jian Jie''s little face began to sink black, glared at J fiercely, turned and walked in the direction of Su Jun''s departure. "Uncle away!" "Haven''t digested things yet?" Looking at Jian Jie''s gloomy appearance, Su Junli felt more and more that he had fallen out of the same mold as Gu Beichen. Jane Jie tangled, "uncle, do you think I should tell my second mother?" Su Jun Li frowned slightly and shook his head. "Just now I called my second mother and guided her to ask. She will take over the case!" Jian Jie left his small mouth, lowered his eyes and began to murmur, "the evidence like me is an irregular source and cannot be presented in court as evidence..." Su Jun smiled from the corner of his mouth and looked at Jian Jie gently like the night wind. The little guy kept whispering to himself. He was smart, but he didn''t seem to think of a way to get the best of both worlds. "Xiaojie," Su Junli finally said, "everyone has their own life and work track, and so do lawyers." Jian Jie raised his eyes and looked at Su Junli. "She chose to take the case..." Su Junli said calmly. "If you can win, everyone will be happy. If you lose... That''s the number of the event itself." Jian Jie was a little confused, but he hung his head and began to think about Su Junli''s words. "There are so many unfair and dark things in the world," J came over and said casually, "I''ll invade several files and materials when I''m fine. I''m tired of worrying about whether to publish them..." Jane Jie stared at J angrily. J glanced. "In fact, Su Junli was right... Every profession should have the characteristics of every profession." He sat down on the lawn and motioned for Jian Jie to sit down, "when a hacker, he should have the professional ethics of a hacker... If he has no money, he must not give information!" J raised his eyebrow. "Lawyers should also have their own professional characteristics. They need evidence and find it by themselves!" Su Junli looked at J and his eyes were deep. Xu is the purest thought, so we can have the simplest view of things Jian Yao is such a person. He is smart and gifted with computers... But he also knows his position. Mo Mo lost Xiao Yan and got Jian Yao. In fact, in some way... Is it God''s compensation for her? At least, Xiao Jie doesn''t have time to be alone, but he has a problem and is not suitable to discuss with his parents. There is such a person who seems to be an uncle and a brother around the second day. Li Xiaoyue and Mo Shaochen officially took over the case of unjust imprisonment together, which immediately attracted the attention of Los Angeles media. Don''t mention Mo Shaochen''s fame. Now Li Xiaoyue''s own fame and the third cooperation after the two people''s second cooperation are still for such a case that doesn''t seem to be a big case at all. It''s impossible not to attract attention. Spend a busy day At night, as scheduled, Mo Shaochen''s car had stopped in blues. "Don''t argue..." the bartender said hello. "Have I got an appointment?" "Here we are, choosing wine in the wine cellar!" Mo Shaochen nodded and went to the wine cellar The wine cellar is a private place. People related to Gu Beichen are generally not allowed to enter it. Ye Chenyu can enter. Beichen hasn''t mentioned such a friend before... Although it''s inconvenient because of his identity. The sound of "pedaling" footsteps came from the stairs, showing calm. Ye Chenyu went out with two bottles of red wine in his hand. "These two bottles are good," he said to Mo Shaochen, who had just reached half of the stairs. "You check out!" Mo Shaochen smiled, "OK." Ye Chenyu was not embarrassed at all. He had already stepped up the stairs. Mo Shaochen also turned around. After they went up, they didn''t go to the front hall, but sat down in a quiet area set aside by Gu Beichen. Mo Shaochen looked at the wine selected by Ye Chenyu and said casually with a smile: "you seem to know my taste very well?" "Huh?" Ye Chenyu flirted with Jianmei, "I just took it to my taste..." "That''s a coincidence!" Mo Shaochen said, and his eyes had fallen on Ye Chenyu''s face. Ye Chenyu took the wine opener and joked, "you can also think of this as a soul..." "There are many kinds of hearts!" Mo Shaochen casually overlapped his legs, "deep love, friendship or..." he deliberately paused, and the smile on the corner of his mouth said the second half of the sentence with deep meaning, "... Family affection!" Chapter 1010 Ye Chenyu''s action of opening wine suddenly stopped uncontrollably His eyes were always slightly drooping. When the bottom of his eyes was gradually deep, the evil smile at the corners of his mouth always maintained that radian. Mo Shaochen looked at him, his eyes were already well aware of the bottom, but the smile on the corners of his mouth didn''t disperse at all. He asked, "just don''t know, which kind are we?" "What do you think?" Ye Chenyu''s voice still showed the smile of the evil ruffian, slightly tilted his head, and looked at Mo Shaochen with a smile. "Me?" Mo Shaochen said lightly, "in fact, I don''t think it''s important..." his eyes were deep, "I think, what kind do you want?" Ye Chenyu astringed his eyes, opened the wine, took the cup, poured it out and handed it to Mo Shaochen. He smiled and said, "I hope it is..." As for the "buzzing" of Ye Chenyu''s mobile phone on the short table, it began to vibrate. Ye Chenyu lowered his eyes and looked at them. His face was slightly cold. At the same time, he put down the wine bottle and picked up his mobile phone, "how?" "Ye Dui, there is an accident here at the hope bridge of the Los Angeles River..." "I''ll be right over!" After hearing the report from the people inside, ye Chenyu said calmly and hung up the phone, "it seems that I can''t drink this wine today." "Business matters." Seeing ye Chenyu''s dignified face, Mo Shaochen knew that what had happened should not be small. Ye Chenyu nodded and got up, "go back and make an appointment..." Then he left the blues with great strides. Mo Shaochen picked up the red wine that ye Chenyu poured himself, shook it gently, and looked at the glass hanging. At the same time, he looked at it from the bottom of his eyes. What did Chenyu say just now?! If you say love, it must be a joke Friendship? Can''t they talk about friendship after they have been abroad for so long?! But what if he really said it was family? Mo Shaochen slowly raised his hand and sipped the wine cup between his lips There are many rare red wines in Beichen wine cellar, but ye Chenyu likes the two bottles he takes. Is it a coincidence that he likes it too? That''s a coincidence Mo Shaochen looked deeper and deeper. The first contact with Ye Chenyu from abroad Ye Chenyu is a thoughtful person. He knows very well, but can the most meticulous person know the preferences of the people around him? He has a long-term relationship with Beichen. It''s understandable that Xiaojie likes to change his hands He even likes Xiaoyue, and he will care about and understand Xiaoyue''s affairs. But... His understanding of himself is not vague, even beyond common sense. Everything passed through his mind. As a lawyer, Mo Shaochen had a calm mind and analysis, and even had an instinct to break through the targeted problems of the incident. But he can''t figure out why?! Raising his hand, Mo Shaochen took another sip of red wine and felt the mellow smell. After passing through the taste buds, he was swallowed Mo Shaochen took out his mobile phone, turned out a group of numbers, and then dialed out, "check the family situation of the newly appointed special police captain for me." The other party didn''t ask much, so he answered. After a while, the other party stuffed the mail Mo Shaochen opened it. The information is very simple. Ye Chenyu has only one mother. The other party is obviously very effective, and a picture of mother Ye is attached below. Mo Shaochen looks at the elegant woman in the picture and frowns slightly. He always feels a little familiar. However, he can''t remember when and where he met?! ¡­¡­ When ye Chenyu arrived near the Hope Bridge on the Los Angeles River, the traffic there had been blocked, and the traffic police and police were guiding the crowd to disperse from both sides Ye Chenyu parked the car and went to the warning line ahead. "What''s going on?" "Ye Dui," said the policeman who pulled the cordon, "at first, some photographers stepped on the scene nearby and found that someone wanted to jump into the river and called the police... Who knows that person didn''t want to jump into the river at all, but to blow up the bridge." "Are people in control?" Ye Chenyu frowned. "It''s under control. The explosives are made locally and have been handled..." the policeman looked dignified. "They have accomplices and held several hostages in confrontation." Ye Chenyu nodded and didn''t ask any more. He just walked straight ahead Negotiators are already negotiating with the other party, but it is obvious that the other party is in a tight spirit at the moment, asking not only to release the arrested person, but also to release the vehicle. The negotiators asked to release the hostages, and their request could be discussed... But the other party didn''t listen at all, and even became a little insane because of nervous tension. "Ye team..." when the special police team saw Ye Chenyu, they hurried forward and quickly said the current situation. After hearing this, ye Chenyu asked for the other party''s walkie talkie and said: "the safety of hostages is the primary thing..." At the same time, he has cut the internal channel: "the sniper team quickly looks for the best shooting point, once it hurts the safety of the hostages..." Halfway through his words, he had reached the inner circle and suddenly stopped. His sight just fell on one of the hostages At the same time, ye Chenyu was taken hostage by the air, and then he was killed by Ye Chenyu on the spot "Yes!" A reply came from the walkie talkie. Ye Chenyu hung his hand and looked at the trapped people inside, frowning together. Negotiators are still stalling, but both sides are clearly deadlocked. Li Xiaoyue had the gun battle in London. In the face of such a situation, he was obviously calmer than the other hostages Even in such a tense atmosphere, she can laugh at herself... What is her black constitution?! "No!" Suddenly, the bandit with Li Xiaoyue was excited, and the knife in his hand began to dance Just when ye Chenyu was shocked, the knife ''stabbed'' and cut the skin on Li Xiaoyue''s arm. Because it was summer, she was wearing short sleeves. Now she was scratched without any barrier. Suddenly, the blood overflowed out uncontrollably Li Xiaoyue had a pain, and his face was ferocious under the cold. However, after the gunfight, she knew very well that if she screamed now, it would only cause panic as a hostage. It is even possible that the gangsters began to resist unidentified. Li Xiaoyue endured the piercing pain in his heart, and a cold sweat gradually overflowed on his forehead. When the gangster made a move, naturally, the police were clamped down Li Xiaoyue''s breathing is getting a little heavy because of the wound. After the stabbing pain, he feels the wet feeling of blood gushing out, and the smell of death And Mo Shaochen just started. Has this been the end? Li Xiaoyue was sad and unwilling. Suddenly Li Xiaoyue''s eyes crossed the line of defense set up by the police in front, and fell on Ye Chenyu in the rear Inexplicably, a sense of peace of mind crossed. At the right time, ye Chenyu''s sight also passed through the middle of the people in front, just opposite Li Xiaoyue Chapter 1011 "Ye Dui, are your personnel in place?" Ye Chenyu nodded slightly to Li Xiaoyue, then looked at the time calmly, "wait another five minutes!" "OK..." Ye Chenyu didn''t say anything, but looked at Li Xiaoyue again and turned around. "Ye Dui?" The patrolling SWAT followed. "Stand by!" While ye Chenyu explained, he kept walking. Then he got on the equipment car, took a sniper gun and strode to Wangjiang building On the viewing platform on the roof of Wangjiang building, ye Chenyu pinned the earphone on the walkie talkie to his ear. While adjusting the sniper position, he calmly began to give orders "Give me the car!" Ye Chenyu spoke. Negotiators received a message that they were rationed with a business car at the request of the gangsters and set aside a road for them to escape. Ye Chenyu''s eyes were slightly heavy. From the sight, he could see that the blood on Li Xiaoyue''s arm was still flowing out "Sniper team attention!" Ye Chenyu spoke. "Attention!" Sound came from the headphones. Ye Chenyu''s eyes narrowed slightly, "sniper time, get in the car! Sniper point personnel allocation, point a..." "Team ye, I''m afraid all the hostages need psychological counseling..." the mediation command officer twisted his eyebrows and pressed the walkie talkie. Ye Chenyu''s eyes darkened. "Do you have a better way?" As soon as the officer listened, the words turned in his throat, and finally he didn''t say anything Now, if you want to ensure the safety of the hostages and don''t let them leave, ye Chenyu''s method is the most effective and fast. Compared with psychological counseling, natural life is the first. It''s too late to say, but the process takes place in an instant. Just as the gangster was preparing to get on the bus with the hostages and opened the door At the four o''clock sniper, he fired almost at the same time The sound of "poop poop" clearly came from my ears. It was the sound of bullets sinking into the body. Just as the scream of the hostages came, the prepared police quickly came forward to subdue the injured gangster and take the hostages away. Li Xiaoyue swallowed hard, and his nervous mood relaxed after being rescued. Suddenly, the whole face didn''t know whether it was because of fear or the injury on his arm. It was pale and bloodless. Soon, the hostages were sent to the nearest public first hospital for examination. "Ye Dui, your shot is too tricky..." "Yes, I can''t do that position anyway!" "Team ye, it seems that you have to teach the sniper team some on-the-spot experience later..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± When the sniper team saw that ye Chenyu had finished negotiating with the mediation control officer, they rushed forward and began to express their admiration and worship for his just shot. Ye Chenyu didn''t speak, but took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to Mo Shaochen: just had an accident, Xiao Yue was taken hostage and injured. He was rescued and has been sent to the first hospital! After seeing the successful sending, ye Chenyu received his mobile phone and said, "they will deal with the rest, continue the night patrol, and the rest will give me a report tonight tomorrow morning." "Yes!" The crowd immediately stood at attention with a straight face. Ye Chenyu didn''t say anything more and turned to his car ¡­¡­ When Mo Shaochen hurried to the hospital, Li Xiaoyue''s arm had been wrapped up. "What''s going on?" Mo Shaochen''s face was shrouded in anxiety, and even his forehead was overflowing with cold sweat. It was obvious that he was in a hurry. When he saw the gauze on Li Xiaoyue''s arm and some bruises, Mo Shaochen''s whole face changed. "Besides the arm, where else is it hurt? Is it serious?" Mo Shaochen''s voice obviously lost his habitual calmness, "speak?!" Li Xiaoyue quietly looked at Mo Shaochen and forgot his response and answer. She has never seen such a mo Shaochen. The person who has always planned strategies seems to have turned over clouds and rain. Is it because she is injured... That she has lost her calmness? "Xiao Yue?" Seeing that Li Xiaoyue didn''t speak, Mo Shaochen frowned and asked, "is there something uncomfortable? Talk..." Li Xiaoyue shook his head and smiled at the corners of his mouth. There was a wet overflow in the fundus of his eyes. Mo Shaochen was even more flustered when he saw it. "Don''t cry, don''t cry, you first say, is it very painful, or the wound has other things besides the arm..." After receiving Ye Chenyu''s text message, he hurried over. Ye Chenyu just said that Xiao Yue was injured, but he didn''t say whether Yan was serious He suddenly lost his calmness and just drove over at a high speed. He completely forgot to ask Ye Chenyu about it first. "I scratched my arm..." Li Xiaoyue said in a sour voice, "it''s not serious. The doctor has treated it." "Really?" "Yes!" Li Xiaoyue nodded with red eyes. As soon as Mo Shaochen heard this, he immediately put down his hanging heart Immediately, when Li Xiaoyue was unprepared, he held her in his arms... Hugged her fiercely. "On the way here, I''m so afraid..." Mo Shaochen closed his eyes and closed his eyes. Because of the fear under worry, "... How afraid it started, it''s over!" He has never been so worried. They say that only through their own experience can they experience such feelings Before, he couldn''t understand Beichen''s mood towards Jian mo. at this moment, he deeply felt that fear. Li Xiaoyue let Mo Shaochen hold her, and her tears spilled out of her eyes at the right time and uncontrollably. Yes, that''s what she thought at that time How tragic is her life to end in that way? "I was also afraid at that time..." Li Xiaoyue sniffed, "but when I saw Ye Chenyu, I knew I would be safe!" Mo Shaochen gently rubbed Li Xiaoyue''s cheek, "he will protect you with his greatest ability..." "Yes!" Li Xiaoyue responded with a grunt. "Mo Shaochen," Li Xiaoyue suddenly shouted Mo Shaochen''s name, not the usual ''senior brother'', "I don''t want to waste time." Mo Shaochen gently let go of Li Xiaoyue, looked at the tears on her cheek, raised his hand and gently wiped it away for her. "I want to be with you, if..." Li Xiaoyue''s nose is sour again, and his misty eyes look at Mo Shaochen, "if you don''t mind my past, I want to be with you!" Tears fall again "At that moment, when I was kidnapped and the knife cut my arm, I was thinking... If the knife cut my neck, what would I regret most if I died?" "Xiao Yue..." "Listen to me first!" Li Xiaoyue interrupted Mo Shaochen''s Distressed voice. "At that moment, I was thinking, what''s my affectation? I tried so hard to stand beside you, and even forced myself to have no way back abroad, but why didn''t I dare to put my hand directly on your hand when you stretched out your hand?" Mo Shaochen stared at Li Xiaoyue quietly. "Mo Mo wasted more than four years because of his pride. Do I have to waste time?" Li Xiaoyue asked himself. Tears poured out, "I don''t want it. I''m afraid I won''t have a chance if I''m not together..." "How?" Mo Shaochen opened his mouth gently, and his eyes were soft and humanized. "We have a lifetime, how can we not have a chance?" "Then I don''t want to waste any more time..." Li Xiaoyue shook his head. "I like you. I don''t know when it will become love. Anyway, it''s been a long time, long enough to be engraved in my bones." Li Xiaoyue sobbed, "if you don''t mind my life... Huh!" The next words were blocked by Mo Shaochen''s kiss. Li Xiaoyue didn''t even have time to think... He had fallen into his overbearing and tender kiss. Ye Chenyu stood at the corner of the corridor and looked at the two people who kissed each other Turned around and leaned against the side corridor they would not see... While the corners of his mouth were hooked with the smile of evil ruffians, his eyes gradually became deep and bottomless, so that people could not see his emotions. Even if there is no one nearby! Chapter 1012 Ye Chenyu leaned against the wall all the time, smiling at the corners of his mouth, showing emotions that even he couldn''t understand. He took out his cigarette and put it in his mouth. He took out his lighter and just wanted to light it... He suddenly remembered that he was in the hospital at the moment! Hang down the hand that wants to ignite. A touch of self mockery crosses the bottom of his eyes. Ye Chenyu takes down the smoke and catches it between his fingers If this is what he can do for Shaochen, he feels that the ending is at least satisfactory, isn''t it? Between Shaochen and Xiaoyue, there is only such an opportunity to open their hearts to each other The moment he saved Xiaoyue, he was thinking that without saying the severity, maybe... They could force them to face each other seriously. Rebirth after robbery, the first person in my mind is the most important person in my heart Obviously, Xiao Yue was thinking about Shaochen at the moment of being hijacked! Ye Chenyu looked slightly sideways Although I saw a wall, I couldn''t see the location of Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue at all. His eyes were deep, then he stood up, turned and walked in the direction of the elevator Shaochen is his brother, and Xiaoyue is a woman he likes very much... If only they could be happy! The moment Ye Chenyu stepped into the elevator, the corner of his mouth overflowed with his usual evil smile. "Where is it?" Sitting on the bus, ye Chenyu called Chu Zixiao. "Law firm," Chu Zixiao''s voice showed a trace of hoarseness, "come here when you have nothing to do. You just want to find someone to have a drink." "OK." Ye Chenyu answered and hung up. The two men, who didn''t say anything, seemed to hit it off at this moment and just wanted to drink. Ye Chenyu went to buy some cold dishes and got two dozen beers. He went straight to the third ring CBD and lawyer Chu Tang drove In the law office of Chu and Tang Dynasties, the soft light in the depths is gently mapped out. Ye Chenyu stopped his car in the parking space, glanced at the law office of Chu and Tang Dynasty, then opened the door, got off and took his things. There was no light at the door. Ye Chenyu went in and went to Chu Zixiao''s office. The last time I came to the Chu Tang law office, it was because of the death of Jian Mo''s father. It seems to be a recent event, but it has been more than a year. "What red wine do you drink on such a night?" As soon as ye Chenyu came in, he saw Chu Zixiao studying which bottle of red wine to open. "I brought beer." Chu Zixiao smiled and put the red wine back, "one person, one dozen?" "Why, can''t you drink?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows with provocation in his words. "I''m afraid you''ll have some urgent task later..." Chu Zixiao teased. "Bah me!" Ye Chenyu immediately turned his eyes, "crow mouth... World peace is very beautiful!" "Yes, yes, peace... Just be happy!" Chu Zixiao said that they had opened their beer cans, touched them and drank a big gulp. Sitting in front of the window, two chairs, a small round glass table But the chair was turned to the window and it could see the Wutong tree outside. Wutong flower is going to fail, and it looks a bit lost. "Why are you still here so late?" Ye Chenyu asked casually, "haven''t you heard about any big cases lately?" Chu Zixiao glanced at Ye Chenyu, took back his sight and drank a beer, "anyway, go back alone, everywhere is alone..." Ye Chenyu knows Chu Zixiao very well. After all, when he was a private detective, he was directly involved in the incident. "Why, can''t you put it down?" Ye Chenyu looked at the Wutong tree outside. "Can''t talk about......" Chu Zixiao''s voice was a little lazy and light. Ye Chenyu looked at Chu Zixiao. "Seriously, the feelings are so tiring. How can so many people not let go of themselves?" Chu Zixiao frowned slightly, "why, is your spring heart moving?" He looked at Ye Chenyu, and the smile on the corner of his mouth was obviously teasing. "I said, it''s annoying to talk to your lawyer..." Ye Chenyu glanced, touched the beer can with Chu Zixiao, and said after drinking, "I didn''t move much." "Li Xiaoyue?" Chu Zixiao asked tentatively. Ye Chenyu, Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue went abroad to deal with international criminal cases. He knew it. It''s not hard to guess Ye Chenyu looked at Chu Zixiao again, and his obvious face said... Your lawyer is really annoying! "Then you don''t think so." Chu Zixiao''s voice showed a smile of being beaten. "Why?" Ye Chenyu sat up straight and looked like "if you don''t talk well, labor and capital will beat you". "She is a dead hearted person..." Chu Zixiao ignored Ye Chenyu''s warning. "I have known her for so many years. Her eyes will shine only when she talks about Shaochen or when others mention Shaochen!" Ye Chenyu lay back lazily on the chair and put his long legs directly on the windowsill this time. After opening another can of beer, he said calmly, "in fact, I can see... So I didn''t put too much emotion." "It''s strange that you''ll like her." Chu Zixiao tilted his head. "I think you should like female King Kong!" "Why?" Ye Chenyu suddenly felt a little idiot. Chu Zixiao smiled, "you are a poor harvester... You have to find someone who can clean you up!" "..." Ye Chenyu immediately sank his face. "I think you are a less abusive type. You are born to find someone to abuse you!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Now, Chu Zixiao is speechless. I always know that ye Chenyu is very poisonous. The specific performance is No, he won''t because of you! "Two big men, is it appropriate to discuss this?" Chu Zixiao raised his eyebrows and opened another can of beer, "dry!" "Just do it, who is afraid of who..." Ye Chenyu and Chu Zixiao were really not afraid of anyone at last. They finished two dozen of beer for a while. They were not satisfied, so they called a nearby convenience store to send two dozen. The night has become soft and quiet after midnight. The busy business circle during the day is dead at this time. When a woman talks about her heart, she usually lies in bed and tells her heart And men, most of whom drink freely, can naturally say. "In fact, when you saved Li Xiaoyue, you should have come forward and pulled her into your arms..." Chu Zi Xiao has been drunk and confused. She is looking at the Wutong tree in the moonlight. She said, "I tell you, every woman has a hero in her heart." He glanced at Ye Chenyu, "in danger, when your nerves are most tense, you save her in a heroic manner... And then take him directly..." He took a beer can in his hand and ordered Ye Chenyu. "Promise, she''s yours." "You seem to be a lover!" Ye Chenyu sneered. "No, I''m not a lover, but you''re stupid..." Chu Zixiao smiled. "I''m stupid to say to Shaochen and let Shaochen appear in front of her in her expectation... ''the first'' Chapter 1013 "Sometimes when you lose the initiative in emotional matters, you really don''t have the right to speak..." Chu Zixiao seemed to feel it, and seemed to be separated from the outside of emotion. "Before, I always thought I could see clearly and love clearly... Later I found out that it was all bullshit!" Chu Zi Xiao saw the Wutong tree again, "I have no idea about Mo Mo, not deceptive." He suddenly understood why Mo Mo didn''t come to ask for help! Obviously, he has the ability to repay her debts and take care of her and her aunt. But why can''t she come to him? After all, he is her boyfriend, and even if she doesn''t know his relationship with Beichen, she knows he has the ability Later, something happened with Zhang Nian, and he realized it. Some things really can''t get through their own difficulties Chu Zixiao''s words have begun to be confused. I don''t know whether he is talking about ye Chenyu or himself. He doesn''t know whether he wants to describe the mess between him and Jane Mo or with Zhang Nian?! Chu Zixiao is a little drunk, but ye Chenyu is still sober. He listened to Chu Zixiao''s "lecture" there, and the smile at the corners of his mouth involuntarily spread out He''s not stupid, he just doesn''t want to argue. Emotional things, there is no need to be scarred in the heart, in order to be relieved. Shaochen likes Xiao Yue, Xiao Yue likes Shaochen... He doesn''t need to intervene. It''s not entirely because Shaochen is his brother, but that kind of feelings can''t stop until they finally make everyone black and blue. This is not what he wants. His mother''s feelings are very tired. He doesn''t want to fight. Maybe he mainly wants to have a more relaxed love? After all, he has been undercover for so many years and has had a relationship with Shaochen for so many years. He is very tired Don''t embarrass yourself. Love must be easier?! ¡­¡­ Mo palace. Large areas of sunflowers swayed in the wind where Jane Mo was going to plant at the beginning. More than half of the poles have hung flower plates of different sizes. In the sun, they are orange and particularly beautiful. Star revolved around the sunflower bed happily. On his beautiful little face, there was a smile sweet enough to burst the sun. He kept clapping his hands, and the blue agate on his hand shook with his clapping. The eyes of the workers were cold, as if they were dead "Yes, yes!" Excited, star ran to Shi Shaoqin not far away. His little face was red because of running, "yes, stones... A lot, a lot!" Shi Shaoqin squatted and said, "a lot?" "Well, yes!" Star happily ''Baji'' on Shi Shaoqin''s cheek and pasted his excited saliva. But Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were softer The early morning sun spread on the sea and the beach. There were several wisps of it, which playfully crossed the eaves and fell on the faces of Shi Shaoqin and star, setting off two peerless beauties, one big and one small, beside the sunflower bed, just like a painting. "OK..." Shi Shaoqin spoiled and picked up star. "Star needs a lot, so we can plant a lot!" "Giggle..." star immediately laughed more and more happily, "a lot..." "Yes!" Star''s laughter was crisp, tender and pure, which dispelled the darkness of the whole ink palace. "Jue Shao, you say..." Carney leaned against the Roman column at the door, looked at Shi Shaoqin holding star to draw the area, joked, "in the future, the Mo palace will not make powder and arms, and we may not be able to sell melon seeds..." Xiao Siyue immediately burst into laughter. Shi Jue Chi''s warm face was also filled with a helpless but comfortable smile, "you can tell star that you can''t reach your wish." "Poof!" Carney almost fell down with unstable legs and feet, "Jue, don''t pit me..." If anyone fans star, if Qin Shao knows that it is inevitable to promise star, how he died is unimaginable Now the people in Mo palace have only one wish. I hope star can always make Qin Shao feel comfortable, and then... Everyone''s life will be much better. Day by day. After another kidnapping, Li Xiaoyue''s relationship with Mo Shaochen has obviously improved by leaps and bounds. Ye Chenyu has become busy these days because he wants to enter the special police team to select new people In addition, Li Xiaoyue took over the case of unjust imprisonment, as if everyone was trapped in "Crazy" work day and night. Shi Shaoqin has been staying in Mo palace since he left Leeds with star But he seemed to have done nothing about Leeds, but as Gu Beichen said, with the intervention of Yemen and Shi Shaoqin, he was happy and relaxed. The sources of goods in many places are supplied by the ink palace, which is the main reason why many places are unwilling to offend the ink palace. On the road, if there is no source of goods, it is equivalent to cutting off the road of wealth. Just relying on the cost of the venue can not support the huge expenses "Mr Gu, you have so many enemies." Jane Mo hung up the clothes sent back from the hotel. Gu Beichen was silent, with a trace of dignity on his cold, carved face. Jane Mo felt that Gu Beichen didn''t listen to her. She went out of the dressing room and didn''t know what to meditate on when she saw him holding his mobile phone? "What''s the matter?" Jane Mo walked over curiously. Gu Beichen hands the mobile phone to Jian Mo, who frowns and droops her eyes When she finished reading the news, her whole face suddenly became bad, "how... How could this happen?" "Yunze must not be able to come," Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "Younger sister K, try again. Yunze is there..." He stopped talking and was obviously very heavy. Jane Mo''s face was also bad. "Shall we go back?" Gu Beichen pondered and shook his head, "let him calm down for a few days first!" Jane mopped her lower lip and nodded. Li Yunze and he Yining''s affairs are indeed not something outsiders can interfere with. "Sister K''s side..." Jane Mo asked anxiously. "Several experts have contacted, the situation is better, or if you can wake up, you can have an operation..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with a smile. "There is Yunze, but we will rest assured. After all, we are acquaintances." Jane nodded, "ah Chen, I don''t want an accident with sister K." Anyway, it''s because they came She is selfish about love. She doesn''t want sister K''s affairs to leave anything in ah Chen''s heart at last?! Gu Beichen''s mobile phone, still in Jian Mo''s hand, suddenly vibrated Jane Mo was startled because her thoughts drifted away. Reacting, she handed Gu Beichen her mobile phone After Gu Beichen picked it up, he listened and hung up the phone. Then he said to Jian Mo, "sister K is awake..." Chapter 1014 Gu Beichen and Jian Mo changed their clothes and went to the hospital When the two arrived at the ward, Dajun and others were waiting outside the ward, with more or less tension on their faces. "How''s sister K?" Gu Beichen looked at the door of the sick room. From the visiting window, he could see that the doctor was examining sister K. The cockscomb nodded slightly dignified, and some wanted to talk and stop. Gu Beichen stared at him, and a pair of sharp eagle eyes crossed him. The cockscomb head couldn''t stand Gu Beichen''s momentum. "Now I don''t know the specific situation. I won''t know until the doctor checks..." Gu Beichen didn''t ask any more. He looked at Jian Mo and waited for the doctor''s examination results with everyone. After a while, the doctor received the inspection instrument, asked sister K again, and turned to walk outside the ward Everyone instinctively stepped out of the door. Only Gu Beichen and others stayed in place. "How''s my friend, doctor?" As soon as Dajun saw the doctor coming out, he hurriedly asked. After seeing Dajun, the doctor looked at Gu Beichen. In his eyes, communicating with Gu Beichen is obviously simpler, direct and easier A large number of professional terms spilled over the doctor''s mouth, listening to the people in the hall staring at each other, but the last sentence summarized by the doctor made everyone understand one thing. "The patient may have intermittent or selective memory loss due to congestion pressing the nerve," the doctor said reluctantly. "This depends on the next examination and the patient''s recovery." "Amnesia?!" Gu Beichen spoke faintly. The doctor nodded. "I just had a preliminary examination. The patient should have amnesia." The people at the meeting had begun to get restless, and Jane Mo frowned slightly. She had a very bloody idea in her heart Xu is writing a love story between her and Gu Beichen recently. He didn''t feel it when many things happened, but now he looks back and thinks it''s bloody At this moment, she didn''t feel "compassionate". Would sister K pretend to lose memory like those scheming women on TV?! Of course, Jane Mo won''t say such an idea. What''s the situation? I won''t know until I see the situation of sister K. "In addition, if the patient is optimistic, he can be ready to arrange the operation to remove the remaining blood clot..." the doctor finally said with a smile. Obviously, this sentence is the most important for the people in the hall. "Oh, yes!" When the doctor was leaving, he suddenly remembered something and said, "the patient''s situation is uncertain. We''d better not say some stimulating words and events to her." "I see!" Gu Beichen thanked the doctor and looked across Dajun, "I''ll go in and have a look..." Then he took Jane Mo into the ward, Because sister K just woke up and didn''t go in for a while, Dajun and jiguantou followed up the ward together. "Beichen..." when sister K saw Gu Beichen, she obviously had a faint smile on her face. However, when she saw Jian Mo behind him, the smile on her face disappeared again, "she is..." The people looked at each other, and before they could answer, they listened to sister K pulling and smiling at Gu Beichen, "Beichen, why are you wearing so formal? But... Mature and better looking!" The little daughter''s posture of sister K, even in her morbid state, appears charming and moving. Cockscomb head and Dajun have a look at each other, and they are obviously worried about the fundus of their eyes. They watched sister K wake up and were basically mentally prepared Sister K''s memory seems to stay before Gu Beichen left. Gu Beichen guessed from a few words that sister K had lost her memory. He looked at the cockscomb head and saw that he looked heavy and had faced up to his ideas Jane Mo felt that she could laugh without love if it wasn''t for the timing, atmosphere and environment. The second female lost her memory, and the memory stayed in the period of hazy love with the male master. There was no female master Well, the next story should be that she can''t be stimulated. In order not to stimulate her, the male owner can only temporarily "compromise" and follow her until the end of the operation. Of course, the result is unknown! Jian Mo secretly ''ha ha'' smiled and looked at Gu Beichen Fortunately, she was relieved that her family''s general manager would deal with things. She would not think that sister K would make the situation complicated. Sister K just woke up and needed a rest. We didn''t say much. "You have a rest first," Gu Beichen said softly. "We''ll come and see you later, huh?" Sister K looked at Gu Beichen from the corner of her mouth. Then she looked at Jian Mo who had not spoken. It was obvious that there was a sense of forbearance in the bottom of her eyes. Jane Mo quietly looked at sister K and suddenly felt a little embarrassed Well, in the eyes of people with amnesia, it is estimated that she is an intervener! "Dajun and I are outside," said the cockscomb head. "Sister K, if you have anything, just ring the call bell..." Everyone said and wanted to leave. Suddenly, sister K raised her hand and grabbed Gu Beichen''s hand. Gu Beichen stopped and looked back at sister K. "Beichen, will you stay with me There was a faint, fragile voice. Dajun felt a touch of sadness at the bottom of his eyes, and the corners of his mouth twitched. Subconsciously, he looked at Jian mo. Jane Mo was calm. "I''ll go to the bathroom..." she looked at Gu Beichen and turned out of the ward. She knew that Gu Beichen would understand what she meant. "Well... Dajun and I will buy something to drink." The cockscomb pulled at the corners of his mouth and pushed down Dajun. Soon, sister K and Gu Beichen were left in the ward. Gu Beichen simply pulled a chair and sat down by the hospital bed. Silence. Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Sister K suddenly didn''t know what to say After a while, it seemed that the depressed people were about to explode. Sister K hesitated and asked, "Beichen... That woman is..." "My wife!" Gu Beichen spoke faintly without hesitation, and even seemed not afraid to stimulate sister K. "What?" Sister K stared, "you, when did you get married?" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at sister K deeply, and her voice was always calm, "she has been married for more than eight years..." When saying this sentence, Gu Beichen''s eyes were obviously filled with tenderness. Unconsciously, he has been married to Mo''er for so long It turns out that when you marry someone who loves you, time will pass imperceptibly and precipitate the years. Sister K began to breathe heavily, "how... How could it be? Why did I lose so many years of memory?" Her voice began to get excited, "you lied to me!" Gu Beichen was indifferent from beginning to end. He looked at sister K quietly, couldn''t help but be excited, and slowly opened his mouth: "sister K, disguise... Often live very tired!" Chapter 1015 Sister K''s pupils suddenly dilated. She seemed puzzled or could not react. She looked at Gu Beichen. "Beichen..." "Sister K," Gu Beichen interrupted, "when I knew you, or... When you knew me, do you remember what you were like?" Sister K was silent. Gu Beichen tilted his head slightly and looked out of the window. "Although you live near the dark street, you are pure and do not belong to that world." Sister K''s mouth moved, but she didn''t say anything. "When you first entered this world, I already made it clear... No one should use others to make excuses for their corruption." Gu Beichen''s voice was always faint, "why not say that you are rebellious for me, and you are eager to release?" The voice of doubt fell, and Gu Beichen''s sharp eyes had fallen on sister K''s face. Sister K''s face is a little embarrassed "You''re not suitable for acting." Gu Beichen shook his head. "I''m afraid not only me, Mo''er, but even Da Jun can see that you''re pretending." Sister K pressed her lips tightly and hung her eyes. "Your pride doesn''t allow you to disguise..." Gu Beichen''s voice gradually sank. "Lies won''t let you get anything, only lose more." "Why?" Sister K''s eyes turned red in an instant. "Even if I''m humble, can you face it so calmly?" Gu Beichen was silent. As the ink pupil deepened, he slowly opened his mouth: "it''s not that I can calm down when you are humble, but... No one can replace Mo''er in my mind..." After a pause, Gu Beichen''s voice became gloomy, "for her, I can subvert the whole world... Do you understand?" The bottom of sister K''s eyes was filled with water mist. Gu Beichen''s words could not be more obvious. If she really loses her memory, he won''t give her any warmth to make Jane Mo sad because she can''t be stimulated He has changed from the time he was in Leeds, but he hasn''t. Now he is the emperor''s president who is proud of the crowd. He doesn''t need to look for stimulation with bloody hands... It''s just a word from him. However, he hasn''t changed Heart, as cold as at the beginning, has no emotion. The only softness was given to a woman named ''Jianmo''. Sister K cried uncontrollably, but Gu Beichen was still unmoved. "Sister K, let yourself go. Don''t do these stupid things. It''s not suitable for you..." Gu Beichen youyou said. "Whether it was or now, simplicity and directness should be what you pursue." He calmly put down his overlapping legs, got up and stared at sister K deeply. "The expert team has contacted and the situation is OK. I''ll remove the congestion for you... Have a good rest." The words fell, Gu Beichen didn''t have much expression, turned around and left the hospital with a steady step. "Beichen..." the cockscomb shouted. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes crossed at the end of the corridor, looked at Jian Mo standing there and looking out of the window, and then looked at the cockscomb head, "I''ll leave these two days. I''ll negotiate with the doctor about the situation of sister K." "So fast?" The cockscomb twists its eyebrows. Gu Beichen nodded and looked at Dajun. "Dajun, I won''t say something. It''s taking into account the previous feelings... You''re a smart man and take care of yourself." Then he turned and walked in the direction of Jian mo. The cockscomb scratched his head and looked at Dajun, "what does Beichen mean?" Dajun didn''t speak, but looked at Gu Beichen''s back, and his sight was getting deeper Beichen knows that he and Shi Di did that night?! Dajun fought a cold war inexplicably, and suddenly he was afraid. Xu used to fight and kill together without much thought, but separated for so many years... Dajun felt for the first time that Gu Beichen''s city government and means. He doesn''t say anything and even makes you feel nothing However, once he does something, he will act quickly, so that you don''t have time to deal with it. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. Mo Shaochen drives and Li Xiaoyue is the co pilot. They just met the top student in the college entrance examination from prison "What would you like to eat later?" Mo Shaochen asked. Li Xiaoyue flipped through the information and said, "whatever..." "..." Mo Shaochen smiled and looked at Li Xiaoyue, who was absorbed in the information about the upcoming court session, and replied, "good!" Li Xiaoyue didn''t think about what Mo Shaochen said at all, but continued to turn over the information. When the car stopped at the supermarket, she looked around, "what are you doing in the supermarket?" "Buy vegetables!" Mo Shaochen said that he had unfastened his safety belt and got out of the car. "Buy vegetables?!" Li Xiaoyue murmured, and then got out of the car. They were walking around the supermarket with shopping carts. Li Xiaoyue was a little uneasy. "Well... In advance, I cook very ordinary." "Yes!" "Huh?" Li Xiaoyue glanced, "well, what does it mean?" Mo Shaochen glanced at Li Xiaoyue, "I''m not bad." "Huh?" Li Xiaoyue was stunned. Looking at Li Xiaoyue, who always responded well, was a little slow. Mo Shaochen gently leaned over to Li Xiaoyue''s ear, smiled and said, "it means that I cook well..." The ambiguous smell lingered, and Li Xiaoyue blushed immediately. It was very hot. Mo Shaochen didn''t tease Li Xiaoyue too much. He just got up with a smile and motioned to her, "go and pick some potatoes." "Oh..." Li Xiaoyue was very shy. At Mo Shaochen''s instruction, he quickly turned and walked to the potato side. I almost hit someone else''s shopping cart because I was in a hurry. Mo Shaochen shook his head reluctantly and smiled and picked the ingredients to be used in the evening. Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen''s apartment. Just like him, the apartment was clean and tidy everywhere, showing simplicity. "Can I help you?" Li Xiaoyue asked with a smile. "Wash this..." Mo Shaochen handed the dishes to be washed to Li Xiaoyue. Li Xiaoyue said, "you''re really welcome." "Do you need it?" Mo Shaochen asked with a smile. Li Xiaoyue was stunned, then shook his head with a blush, "no need." Li Xiaoyue and Mo Shaochen looked at each other and smiled. They began to work separately. Li Xiaoyue started next to Mo Shaochen. Looking at Mo Shaochen''s action of cutting vegetables and matching food, he was an old hand "I heard from the girl that President Gu can do anything, but he can''t cook!" Li Xiaoyue said suddenly. "Well, at this point, he lost to me!" Mo Shaochen was obviously proud in his tone. "No, Mr. Gu must lose to you..." Li Xiaoyue leaned on the glass platform, played with a tomato back and forth in his hand, picked the corner of his mouth and said, "eloquence must be better than." Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue and his eyes began to become deep At the moment, she seems to feel that he is powerful and happier than herself... In that way, she is charming. Put down the chopping knife, Mo Shaochen suddenly hugged Li Xiaoyue''s waist. Li Xiaoyue was shocked and subconsciously looked up at Mo Shaochen. At the right time, Mo Shaochen had bowed down his face and fell on her lips Without any prelude, just a slight pause, the thick tongue has been deeply straight into, severely raging her beauty Chapter 1016 Mo Shaochen has always been calm and indifferent. Maybe it''s because his parents are gone and he grew up taking care of his family. Xu is because the lawyer industry has long hidden his edge. However, when men''s nature comes out, even if you are calm to light wind and light clouds, you will also turn into a violent storm at this moment. "Well..." Li Xiaoyue lost her thinking ability when she was stirred by Mo Shaochen''s overbearing lips. She only felt that the air in her body was gradually sucked away by him The feeling that his heart was about to stop beating and suffocated and was about to faint made Li Xiaoyue paralyzed. If she didn''t lean on the glass platform and Mo Shaochen''s hand was imprisoned on her waist, I''m afraid she''d slipped now Mo Shaochen''s kiss became deeper and deeper. Li Xiaoyue just accepted it from the beginning. Gradually, because of his guidance, he gently grasped the shirt on his waist with both hands and tried to respond slowly Li Xiaoyue''s response undoubtedly made a body silent for a long time. Once it ignited, it would get out of control. Mo Shaochen felt numb on his scalp. Some places have become restless, which is the most direct reaction of men to express their enthusiasm Li Xiaoyue felt the difference of Mo Shaochen, but because he kissed seven meat and eight vegetables, his brain had no time to think, and his whole face was very dry and red. Their breathing was rapid and heavy. When Li Xiaoyue was about to be unable to breathe, Mo Shaochen slowly let her go. Just, just let go of the invasion, lips, almost still close to her. "Xiao Yue, is that ok?" Mo Shaochen''s voice was hoarse and severe. Under the breath of forbearance, he obviously couldn''t control himself. Li Xiaoyue touched his lower lip and his face was still dry and red. However, the position of his heart was very messy. She doesn''t know whether she can, not whether she can go further with Mo Shaochen, but whether she can "I, I don''t know..." Li Xiaoyue lowered her eyes and wanted to get rid of her cramped eyes. However, the confusion on her face has revealed her mind. "Shall we try?" Mo Shaochen suffered a little, and his eyes were burning as if he were about to burst out fire. Li Xiaoyue bit his lip. There was still Mo Shaochen''s breath on it, which was palpitating. "I..." Li Xiaoyue spilled a word, flustered raised his eyes, looked at Mo Shaochen, and hurriedly staggered his sight again. Mo Shaochen doesn''t want to force Li Xiaoyue, let alone see her so upset. However, he also knows that there must be a chance for such an attempt Today''s atmosphere is obviously better. "Just tell me..." Mo Shaochen said in an ambiguous low voice, "would you like to?" As he spoke, the heat spread on the skin beside Li Xiaoyue''s lips. It was crisp and numb, which made people flustered. Li Xiaoyue smiled at the corners of her mouth and wanted to say that she was willing to talk to Mo Shaochen However, there are some things she doesn''t know if she can get over that. Mo Shaochen looked at the woman close at hand with deep eyes. He didn''t ask anything, and didn''t wait for Li Xiaoyue to say anything. After slightly pulling away, he grabbed her horizontally. The night came in through the curtains that had not been pulled. Thousands of lights are reflected in the dark bedroom. Mo Shaochen supported his hands on both sides of Li Xiaoyue''s body. He looked at the woman with complex expression deeply. Gradually... The light in his eyes became the same as the night sky outside, making people unable to explore the depths. "Leave it to me, huh?" Mo Shaochen asked softly, "if you can''t continue, just stop!" Li Xiaoyue''s breath began to become short. She clenched her hand, tangled for a while, and finally nodded. Anyway, she always has to overcome this step, doesn''t she? Mo Shaochen smiled at the bottom of his eyes. He took the remote control on the bedside table and pressed it easily I saw the curtains close slowly and cover the light outside. At the same time, the wall lamp at the head of the bed also gradually emits a soft light. The atmosphere is ambiguous. After heart to heart communication with each other, it seems that we can finally reach the soul and one. Mo Shaochen watched Li Xiaoyue''s reaction as he moved. At first, she was resistant, specifically manifested in the uncontrollable shaking of her body However, she is trying to overcome it. And Mo Shaochen did not stop because of her resistance. If we don''t finish all the process today, it will only leave a greater shadow in her heart... Whether it''s herself or from him. Mo Shaochen knows this very well. Naturally, the last step, even if it is tough... He has to finish it. When they merge with each other, the breath in the room is too soft to breathe. Mo Shaochen kissed Li Xiaoyue deeply. He was relaxing her rigid body. He didn''t start further until her thoughts were guided by him The night is so beautiful. At a time when thousands of families were happy and harmonious, Mo Shaochen''s home was filled with ambiguity belonging to home ¡­¡­ "Brother Yu, let''s go first..." Qiao Rui took a shower, changed his clothes and said hello to Ye Chenyu who was changing his clothes. But before people got out of the dressing room, the internal alarm of the special police team suddenly sounded. "Shit, do you still let people live?!" Qiao Rui scolded and looked back at Ye Chenyu. The man who was still changing clothes had put on his T-shirt and strode to the door. "What happened?" Ye Chenyu looked at the running team members and asked as he walked to the control room. "The gold shop in the commercial street of the East District was robbed. The other party has heavy weapons in his hand. The criminal police team wants our support." The team member said quickly, "the patrol team at night has passed, but the fire can''t keep up." "Qiao Rui..." "Here!" "Inform group B to pack up and leave in five minutes." Ye Chenyu calmly ordered. "Yes!" Qiao Rui answered and took the walkie talkie and began to give orders. Five minutes later, the special police car opened the alarm and sped away to the East Commercial Street "According to the information given by the criminal police team," Ye Chenyu, holding a flat plate in his hand, raised his eyes after reading the information and calmly crossed the personnel in the car, "the other party has a lot of firepower. One AK47 and two M4S are certain." The air pressure in the car is a little low. Now what we are worried about is not heavy fire, but the business circle in the East District. There are a lot of people shopping at this point. If they are evacuated, they may not be able to ensure the safety of personnel. Qiao Rui has transferred the internal structure diagram of the gold store through the computer. "Brother Yu, the cameras inside have been damaged. The other party is professional at a glance." Ye Chenyu thought a little, "wait a minute and negotiate with the criminal police team. At these points, the sniper will find his best design position at the first time." "Yes!" Ye Chenyu glanced out of the window and entered the warning range "Squeak -" Suddenly, a small white sports car passed the special police car and stopped at a pile of police cars in front, making a harsh brake sound. "Shit, who''s so awesome, driving a sports car into the control area at this time?" Qiao Rui stared. In due time, I saw a woman in a skirt with a full 10 cm thin high heel and a V-neck waist to knee on the driver''s seat of the sports car, walking down Chapter 1017 The special police car stopped at the right time. Ye Chenyu took back his sight on the woman, "except for the snipers, the rest are on standby in the car." "Yes!" Ye Chenyu and Qiao Rui got off the bus first. Before they could stand firm, they heard a capable and domineering female voice. "Who''s in charge of the SWAT team responsible for tonight''s attack?" "It''s officer Ye of the eastern special police force." A policeman said that he happened to see ye Chenyu coming with Qiao Rui, "coming!" The woman in high heels turned around, and her Wavy Curls fluttered slightly with her rotation. It was just as charming as advertising shampoo. The woman is very good-looking, with a pair of Phoenix eyes slightly selected and sharp, and thin makeup on her delicate facial features. Look at your dress. You should have come to some party. The woman walked to Ye Chenyu in 10 cm high heels, with steady steps and arrogance. "Special police officer ye?" The woman asked. Seeing ye Chenyu nodding, she said, "I''ll take over the commander-in-chief of the operation for two minutes. I want to listen to your preliminary deployment for the control of this robbery." Ye Chenyu frowned slightly. "Don''t you think, politely, you should introduce yourself first?" "I''m not here to socialize with you..." the woman said in a cold and domineering voice. "If you think you have time to waste here, I think your position in the special police force needs to be reassessed." Then the woman looked at the time, "you still have one minute." "..." Qiao Rui took a swipe at the corner of his mouth, secretly grinned at the woman, and then looked at Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu is usually very easygoing, but because he has been undercover for too long, he has a rebellious ruffian spirit. He is very cooperative, but under such circumstances, he is often uncooperative. Sure enough Ye Chenyu just glanced at the woman and said nothing. He had passed her to the special police patrol that arrived here first to understand the situation. Then, after he put on the satellite wireless headset, he began to arrange the action plan Everything completely ignored the previous woman. "Ye Dui, you''re in big trouble!" The policeman who played well in the criminal police team whispered and motioned him to look at the woman. Ye Chenyu looked sideways and saw that the woman also looked over, with an unpredictable smile on the corner of her mouth Ye Chenyu smiled at the woman, a very evil smile, showing provocation. The woman looked back coldly. At the right time, someone came over and handed her a black bag. "Who is she?" Ye Chenyu asked when he saw the woman getting on the control car with a black bag. The criminal policeman grinned, "the daughter of Chen''s group, the elite of the police force who has just returned from abroad, the expert of criminal psychology and the master of fighting..." after he said a long string of prefixes, he slowly said the woman''s identity and name, "Chen Yu, the incoming Deputy Bureau of the eastern district police station and the captain of the criminal police force!" "Shit!" Qiao Rui was immediately dumbfounded. "Is she Chen Chen?!" "Yes!" The criminal police obviously have schadenfreude in the fundus of their eyes. Qiao Rui pulled down the corner of his mouth and looked at Ye Chenyu''s face. Ye Chenyu frowned slightly, "why haven''t I heard of it?" "Brother Yu, you''ve been fooling around before. Such police overlord flowers are of protection level... You haven''t heard of it. It''s normal!" Qiao Rui laughed twice, "just not much... We belong to the East District. I feel that you will have a hard time in the future!" "I don''t know who won''t let who be better..." Ye Chenyu hooked the lower lip corner of the ruffian, and then looked positive. "According to the deployment, prepare for action." The words had just fallen, and Chen had already got out of the accusation car. She has faded her charming dress. At the moment, her curly hair has been curled up, and she is even more heroic in a police combat uniform. "Tut Tut, such a woman, take off her uniform, don''t want to be beautiful, and don''t want to be beautiful after wearing it..." Qiao Rui finally sighed, "it''s the type that makes men fly moths to the fire." It''s too attractive, so it''s too beautiful But that''s a fire! Go up and die! Many people in the police force know about Chen Yu''s deeds, but for ye Chenyu, today is definitely the first time to hear it. For the first time, he left a "deep" impression on Chen. Chen Yu also left an unforgettable memory for ye Chenyu If a rich family doesn''t get together three or five times a day, or learn to manage the group. He is also convinced by the title of "overlord flower of the police force". However, to be convinced is to be convinced. Ye Chenyu''s impression of this woman is really bad Well, Qiao Rui said... Ye Chenyu is probably caused by straight male cancer. A woman, who is only 27 years old, climbs over a man''s head in a place where there are most men. It still depends on her ability. How can she make a man feel a little depressed. A robbery, because ye Chenyu and Chen Yu, two sharp characters, ended perfectly except that a small part of the staff of the gold shop were injured. Chen Yu handed the gun in his hand to someone to clean up. Then he copied his pocket with both hands and looked at Ye Chenyu, who was a head higher than her. The corners of his mouth hooked a stiff smile, "Ye Chenyu?" "Chen Ju moves quickly," Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. "It seems that everyone knows each other very well!" Chen Yu smiled deeper, nodded, looked deeply at Ye Chenyu, said nothing, and turned to the car. "I feel the strong air pressure," Qiao Rui covered his chest, "the heart is about to burst..." Ye Chenyu glanced at Qiao Rui lightly. As he walked to the special police car, he said foolishly: "fortunately, my heart has a good bearing capacity." Qiao Rui twitched at the corner of his mouth, "brother Yu, women are sometimes very troublesome... You should soften up just now." "Think too much!" "Then I guess the next brothers will have a hard time because of you..." Qiao Rui has a bitter melon face. "That''s just right. I think everyone''s bones are a little loose recently." Ye Chenyu said with indifference and evil charm. When he opened the door, he looked sideways Chen Chen has already changed his clothes and got out of the car. He pulled the rubber band tied to his hair. His curly hair was scattered like a waterfall in an instant. The whole person faded from the sharp and cold, and became charming and moving. "Women should still look a little like women." Ye Chenyu said something and got on the bus. Qiao Rui twitched at the corner of his mouth and whispered, "the problem is that this woman can be feminine and hold down men!" "Female?" Ye Chenyu was a little ruffian and lightly EH. Qiao Rui was stunned at first. Then he reflected what ye Chenyu said and burst into laughter Meanwhile, the white sports car slid past the Swat car. Almost at the same time, Chen Yu tilted his head and raised his eyes, and ye Chenyu tilted his head and lowered his eyes... They looked provocatively at each other! Chapter 1018 Just a glance, the evil charm of Ye Chenyu''s mouth gradually became cold. Chen Chen looked back indifferently, and with a "whoosh", the sports car left like an arrow off the string. "Brother Yu, why do I feel murderous in the air?" Qiao Rui said with an exaggerated expression. Ye Chenyu smiled. "It seems that you don''t do enough and can''t calmly face such an atmosphere." "Don''t..." Qiao Rui swallowed and shook his head hurriedly. "I''m almost tired to be a dog these two days. I''m not enough!" "All right, stop playing tricks... Count the equipment and go back." Ye Chenyu said, having taken the tablet. Qiao Rui answered and got up to light up his equipment with everyone Ye Chenyu looked lazy and moved quickly on the tablet After a while, he entered the internal network of the police station and called out Chen''s information. He graduated from the Public Security University at the age of 18, and then took part in the national police fighting competition and won the second place. Then he went abroad to further study criminal psychology and conducted various professional training as exchange personnel in the world for many times If we say that ye Chenyu''s ability is mixed. Chen Yu''s ability is definitely forged The sound of "Zhi -" crossed the silent surroundings, and the white sports car stopped at the door of a private club restaurant. After getting out of the car, she threw the car key to the parking staff. Wearing high heels and arrogance, she entered the restaurant. "Miss Chen..." the waiter smiled and opened the door of the box to Chen when he saw her coming back. In the box, the atmosphere was a little stiff, and there was a trace of unhappiness flowing. Chen Yu looked around and finally his eyes fell on Chen Qishan. "Well, why didn''t everyone eat?" Chen Yu said and walked to Chen Qishan. "Dad," she sat down and circled his arm and began to act coquettish, "I didn''t say, don''t wait for me Chen Qishan didn''t speak and even ignored Chen Yu. Chen Feng looked at Chen Yu with a look of schadenfreude: "sister, today is a dust washing banquet for you. You are not here... What else do you eat?!" Chen Yu''s eyes crossed Chen Feng sharply, completely warning. Chen Feng turned his mouth, but he still looked gloating. "Dad, are you angry?" Chen Ming knows why he asked. Chen Qishan sneered, "I think my performance has been very obvious." Chen Shu shrugged, let go of Chen Qishan, took the chopsticks, looked at the table that automatically turned the dishes, picked the phoenix eye, and went to pick his favorite dish. "Well... Delicious!" Chen Yu had a satisfied enjoyment. "For more than a year, I have been in deep mountains and forests, either compressed biscuits or wild fruits, or raw barbecue without seasoning... I fantasize about those dishes every day." Chen Qishan''s face has begun to crack, and the pain in the bottom of his eyes can''t be controlled. However, for the sake of face and anger, I still hold it. Chen Yu didn''t care about him, and just called everyone to start. But everyone is used to enjoying it. The dishes on this table have been up for a long time and have long been cold. Although Chen Qishan doesn''t say it, they don''t want to move in their hearts. Chen Shu doesn''t care about the thoughts of the family. What he eats is called wind and water From time to time also praised how good the taste was and how much she enjoyed eating. Chen Feng silently counted down in his heart... He chose Chen Yu in his eyes. Sure enough, within a minute, Chen Qishan couldn''t hold back. "Let the people in the restaurant redo the table. It''s cold. Don''t eat it bad." Chen Qishan looked at his baby daughter with a distressed face. He couldn''t understand why such a smart and beautiful daughter was abducted into the ditch?! Chen Feng quietly gave Chen Shu a thumbs up, a face of admiration. In this family, only Chen Yu can subdue Chen Qishan. Unfortunately, Chen''s "heart" is not at home. ¡­¡­ When Mo Shaochen put the food on the table, Li Xiaoyue just came out of the bathroom in his bathrobe. There are several drops of water in the wet hair, which are gradually condensed at the tip of the hair, and then sucked away by the bathrobe There was a blush on her cheek. I don''t know whether it''s because of shyness or just after taking a bath On the neck, there are faint kiss marks, showing the charm after ambiguity. "Come and have dinner." Mo Shaochen smiled at Li Xiaoyue and couldn''t see to the end. Li Xiaoyue''s body is a little sour. No matter how elegant men are when they wear clothes, they will liberate their nature in bed! Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue standing in place. His face gradually blurred. He didn''t know what he was thinking. The corners of his mouth smiled, and he walked forward Li Xiaoyue was surprised when Mo Shaochen approached, "you..." "After exercising for so long, aren''t you hungry?" Mo Shaochen asked frivolously. "Teng" once, Li Xiaoyue''s face turned red at once. As soon as Mo Shaochen saw it, he couldn''t help holding Li Xiaoyue''s waist with both hands and kissed her gently on her forehead, "Xiaoyue, we are all adults, huh?" "I..." "I like your shyness," Mo Shaochen''s voice became hoarse again. "But I hope you accept me." Li Xiaoyue looked down at the corners of her mouth and slowly said, "I have accepted you..." Because of you, I want to abandon all the past and be with you. Just because of you! Mo Shaochen grabbed Li Xiaoyue''s shoulder with one hand and held her in his arms. His chin rubbed gently on the top of her hair, "move over and live with me... OK?" Li Xiaoyue listened to Mo Shaochen''s heartbeat and his face was very hot. She didn''t speak, just nodded gently in Mo Shaochen''s arms When people get along with each other, one takes the initiative and the other just needs to respond... Often, things will become easier. The next day, the sunshine in midsummer hung in the sky early. Mo Shaochen sent Li Xiaoyue to the law firm, "I''ll pick you up for dinner at noon." "Don''t bother so much. Just let Chu ran order takeout." Li Xiaoyue looked at whether the documents in the briefcase were complete and said. "Something." Mo Shaochen spoke faintly. "Huh?" Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen suspiciously, "there should be no problem with the case for the time being?!" Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue and smiled. Without explanation, he just parked his car on the roadside of Yue law firm, "anyway, I''ll pick you up." Li Xiaoyue saw that he was stubborn, but he didn''t have an affectation. He smiled and nodded, "OK..." he paused, "you drive carefully." "Yes." Mo Shaochen smiled and said, "after all, I''m not alone now." Li Xiaoyue was stunned at first, then reacted, his face turned red unconsciously, and hurried out of the car The position of the heart is the same as that of the war drum. Li Xiaoyue doesn''t know. It turns out... She still has the opportunity to be like a little girl, because she is in love and has palpitations. But Li Xiaoyue''s steps towards the law firm were hesitant and slow. What''s the matter with him? Have to come to dinner with her at noon?! Chapter 1019 Li Xiaoyue didn''t figure it out, so he didn''t think about it. Anyway, I''ll know at noon. Time flies in the busy. In the twinkling of an eye, it''s noon. "Sister Yue, we''re going to order takeout. What do you have for lunch today?" Chu ran asked, lying at the door. Li Xiaoyue kept looking at the information on the computer, "don''t worry about me..." Chu Ran''s eyes lit up as soon as she heard it. "Hey, sister Yue, don''t argue. Are you coming?" Li Xiaoyue looked at Chu ran with a gossip face and admitted generously, "what do you think?" "Tut tut..." Chu ran rubbed against his desk. "Sister Yue, according to Mo''s argument, it''s either not going to do it or it''s going to stick. I think you''ll be taken down soon?!" Has been taken down Li Xiaoyue didn''t think about it, so he had such an idea in his mind. "Sister Yue, why is your face so red?" Chu ran nodded clearly, "it can''t be... Have you been taken down?" Li Xiaoyue suddenly regained his mind. Before he spoke, Chu ran asked with a narrow face: "sister Yue, where have you been arguing with Mo "What, which step?" Li Xiaoyue asked reflexively. "Hey, hey, it''s just..." Chu Ran''s eyebrows fluttered and the thief asked, "... Holding hands, kissing, or... Hum..." "..." Li Xiaoyue has understood Chu Ran''s meaning, "we..." "Wow!" Chu ran suddenly screamed. Li Xiaoyue was stunned and saw Chu ran walk around the desk to her and get close to her neck without saying a word "Sister Yue, is this a kiss mark?" Chu ran got up with a start and said, "unexpectedly, Mo Bian is such a Mo Bian!" "I personally think that once the relationship is determined, we should go straight to the point in order to be stable!" Suddenly, a low, shallow and steady voice came. Li Xiaoyue and Chu ran both look at the door of the office I saw Mo Shaochen standing there calmly, as if what he just said was their illusion, not what he said at all. Li Xiaoyue''s face turned red instantly. Chu ran blushed with embarrassment because of what she had just said. "Don''t... don''t argue..." Chu ran greeted with a grin. "Why are you so early?" Li Xiaoyue looked for words and tried to break the embarrassment. Mo Shaochen motioned Li Xiaoyue to go, "I don''t intend to live together illegally." "Huh?" Li Xiaoyue looked confused. Her first reaction was to look at Chu ran and think that the gossip little witch had to pester her. "Hissing..." Chu ran sucked down. She is not the same channel as Li Xiaoyue, or she is a spectator. Looking vaguely at Li Xiaoyue, Chu ran said "hey hey" twice, looking clear. "I''ll go out first, so I won''t delay Mo Bian and sister Yue to do serious things..." Chu ran smiled and waved with Mo Shaochen and left the office. Li Xiaoyue sighed, "headache!" Li Xiaochen doesn''t know what he looks like. Look at him. "Let''s go..." Li Xiaoyue took his bag and walked out with Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen started the car, and Li Xiaoyue didn''t ask where to eat. When the car stopped downstairs, she frowned and asked subconsciously, "go back to my house to cook today?" Mo Shaochen was amused by Li Xiaoyue. "What do you think?" He loosened his seat belt. "Although he is an adult, he can live together. Personally, I think it still needs to be legal!" Li Xiaoyue''s eyes widened, and then he reacted. What does the sentence "illegal cohabitation" in Mo Shaochen''s office mean? But Li Xiaoyue frowned slightly, "if I understand correctly, are you going to register with me to get married?" "Otherwise?" Mo Shaochen gently supported the steering wheel with his arm. "That''s it?" Li Xiaoyue smiled at the corners of his mouth and felt a little stuffy in his heart. Mo Shaochen almost saw through Li Xiaoyue''s mind at a glance, but he didn''t say anything, just motioned her to get off. Li Xiaoyue felt as if she had blocked something. Seeing Mo Shaochen get off the car, she also loosened her safety belt and got off the car After so much experience, it''s not the age of a little girl. Li Xiaoyue knows that the marriage certificate is the heart under guarantee for her now. But... Why is there some emptiness in my heart?! Li Xiaoyue silently entered the elevator with Mo Shaochen and pressed his floor. With a Ding, the elevator arrived. At the moment when the elevator door opened, Li Xiaoyue glanced at Mo Shaochen and saw that he had walked out. He couldn''t tell the taste in his heart. Just take the Hukou book to register his marriage? This is what she wants, but what is missing Li Xiaoyue took out the key from his bag and opened the door silently. Li Xiaoyue, it''s not your wishful thinking to marry him and know that he likes you... In fact, you should be satisfied. Li Xiaoyue twisted the key, crossed his eyes, pushed open the door... And went in. Suddenly Li Xiaoyue stood in situ. Because of surprise, she opened her mouth slightly and looked at the pink, blue and red balloons scattered everywhere in the house. For a time, she didn''t know how to react She subconsciously walked in and looked around. Where the living room leads to the bedroom, there is a huge flower wall with ''Mary me'' inlaid with gold powder in the middle of blue roses! On the tea table, there was a large bunch of red roses, aside, there was also a file bag and a black bronzed jewelry box. Loss and shock, two great contrasting emotions filled Li Xiaoyue''s nerves. For a time, she forgot to respond. Mo Shaochen passed through balloons all over the ground and took the jewelry box and bouquet on the table. Li Xiaoyue looked at him dully, and saw him staring at himself affectionately. After handing her the bouquet, he knelt down on one knee Mo Shaochen opened the jewelry box and took out the diamond ring The five carat diamond ring shines brightly when the sun shines on it. "Xiao Yue, will you marry me?" Mo Shaochen said softly, "no matter whether the road of life in the future is smooth or rough, let me accompany you... Go down together!" Li Xiaoyue''s nose was sour in an instant, and the fundus of his eyes was stained with a layer of water mist. She looked down at Mo Shaochen and sniffed, "how can you have my key..." "..." Mo Shaochen smiled, then raised his eyes and stared at Li Xiaoyue, "from Xiaojie." Paused, "but shouldn''t you agree to my proposal now?" Li Xiaoyue burst into laughter and tears welled up in her eyes. "I have no reason to disagree..." Li Xiaoyue said with a smile. "I just thought that I didn''t propose. Although I was lost, I''m still willing to get the certificate with you." Mo Shaochen got up, put the ring on for Li Xiaoyue and hugged her, "how can you get the certificate with me in a lost mood?" He tilted his face and kissed Li Xiaoyue on the cheek. "Every woman should give the rest of her life to another man with the best expectation and good mood..." Mo Shaochen said gently, "and a man should welcome the woman who walked through life with him with the best of everything!" Li Xiaoyue''s heart was touched in an instant. She doesn''t ask for Momo''s vigorous love. She just wants a man who can understand her and accompany her And that man happens to be the one she loves. "Sign this..." Mo Shaochen let Li Xiaoyue go and took out the agreement in the file bag on the tea table. "What?" Li Xiaoyue frowned. Chapter 1020 Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue deeply, "prenuptial agreement..." Li Xiaoyue frowned more tightly. They are lawyers and know the importance of prenuptial agreements better than most people. But I know it''s the same thing. When I need to sign... Li Xiaoyue found that I''m actually a little uncomfortable. After taking the pen, Li Xiaoyue didn''t look at the content, so he signed at the back. "Don''t look?" Mo Shaochen asked with a smile, "I''m not afraid that there are some hidden terms in me and sell you?" Li Xiaoyue smiled and shook his head, "if you get to that step, I''m afraid it doesn''t matter..." If the heart is broken, what else is worth caring about?! "Fool..." Mo Shaochen smiled, took Li Xiaoyue into his arms again and said softly, "Xiaoyue, we are no longer young and have no impulse to go crazy." Li Xiaoyue was held by Mo Shaochen and his lips were clenched. There was an unspeakable warmth in his heart. "You give me you," Mo Shaochen said slowly with a smile in his mouth, "I give you everything I have." "Huh?" Li Xiaoyue looked up slightly. "You trust me when you give you to me..." Mo Shaochen gently let go of Li Xiaoyue, "and everything about me, stocks, investments, real estate and all fixed assets under my name, are given to you just to make you feel more secure." Women are in charge of men''s finances, sometimes not because they are greedy for the money. Instead, women are inherently insecure, especially women who have been hurt. Getting married soon is a lifetime. Mo Shaochen knows very well that if he marries a person, he hopes that he will never be separated from each other for a lifetime. Give all his wealth to Xiao Yue, just tell her that he has confidence in their feelings. Also ask her to hope for their future, not humble and full of confidence Their eyes are opposite. At that moment, no words can calm each other. Maybe... Only having each other can tell the most romantic feelings. ''click'' across, camera freeze Under the red background, Li Xiaoyue and Mo Shaochen smile sweetly. When the steel seal is covered and the bright red marriage certificate is handed over to two people, it represents a sacred and inviolable marriage. "When the case in your hand is over, I''ll go abroad with you to see your parents..." Mo Shaochen took Li Xiaoyue''s hand and walked out, "well, propose marriage!" "All the marriage certificates have been obtained..." "We can take it as no collar," Mo Shaochen opened the door and looked at Li Xiaoyue with a smile. "We still have to fall in love anyway." "..." Li Xiaoyue twitched at the corners of his mouth. "Elder martial brother, don''t you think our program is wrong?" "How?" Mo Shaochen raised his eyebrows. "We are in love within marriage." "But my parents..." "Don''t worry, there''s me!" Mo Shaochen looked deeply at Li Xiaoyue and said, "besides, don''t you want the wedding to be when the maple leaves are red?" Li Xiaoyue looked surprised at Mo Shaochen, "you know?!" "Care, naturally know." Mo Shaochen motioned Li Xiaoyue to get on the bus, "get the license. I just can''t wait to confirm our relationship so that you can fall in love with me without worries..." Li Xiaoyue''s nose is a little sour. The marriage certificate in her hand is hot, but it warms her heart. He knows her past, now, as he said With this marriage certificate, she may really have no worries. ¡­¡­ Liz. In the morning, there is always a superficial peace in people''s lazy steps. Jane Mo holds a bunch of pink stars in her hand, looks at sister k who looks a little better, and puts the flowers aside with a smile. "Ah Chen and the doctor went to talk about your second operation. I''ll come and see you first." Jane Mo said and sat down with a chair beside her. Sister K was silent and just looked at Jane mo. "Ah Chen and I will take the train back to London in the afternoon..." Jane Mo continued. "I wanted to wait until your operation is finished, but..." she shrugged. "It seems that I can''t do it." "Are you here to show off?" Sister K asked coldly. Jane Mo smiled and shook her head, "I don''t need to show off..." Sister K''s eyes were slightly cold, and the corners of her mouth were pulled down coldly. "What ah Chen and I have experienced is beyond words." Jian Mo said in a calm voice, "I won''t doubt him in case of problems, and he won''t wrong me... Sister K, no one can insert between us." After a pause, Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and asked, "who do I need to show off?" "Without you, maybe everything is different." There was a trace of emptiness in sister K''s voice. "Have you ever thought about it?" Jian Mo asked, "if it weren''t for me, ah Chen, it wouldn''t be him anymore?" Sister K frowned suddenly, "what do you mean?" Jane Mo smiled, "actually, you know..." Sister K clenched her hand slightly and didn''t speak. Jian Mo didn''t continue this topic, but chatted, and even asked Gu Beichen about his past Sister K knows. Without Jian Mo, Gu Beichen is not Gu Beichen now. Such feelings, they have long been integrated, why do they need the attention of others to strengthen their love?! On Liz''s train back to London, Jane Mo looked at the flying scenery and leaned gently on Gu Beichen''s shoulder "Ah Chen, do you think Shaochen has finished Xiao Yue?" Asked Jane mo. Gu Beichen put down the magazine in his hand, looked at Jane Mo with a blurred expression and thought slightly, "they are not small..." "Huh?" Jane Mo got up without understanding and looked at Gu Beichen suspiciously. "How can you spend so much time?" Gu Beichen explored his long arm and took Jian Mo into his arms. "Since everything is ready, Shaochen will not allow himself to fail in his proposal." He said, with a faint smile on his thin lips, "besides, Xiao Yue wants to stand next to Shaochen so much. How can he refuse this opportunity with affectation Gu Beichen''s words fell, and the prompt tone of wechat message came from Jian Mo''s mobile phone. Jane Mo took out the door and opened it. Seeing that it was Li Xiaoyue''s message, she hurriedly opened it Suddenly, bright red photos came into sight. "Ah!" Jian Mo screamed and attracted the attention of the people in the carriage. She quickly apologized and smiled with everyone, nodded and handed her mobile phone to Gu Beichen "Shaochen, there''s no one at this speed..." Jane Mo''s face was more excited than getting her marriage certificate. Although, when she got the certificate, it was a form, and there was really nothing to be excited about. Gu Beichen smiled, not surprised at all. Jian Mo has a sour nose. "Husband, I suddenly feel so perfect..." Gu Beichen held Jian Mo, gently rubbed Jian Mo''s hand with his other hand, and said in a magnetic low voice, "everything will be perfect." "Well..." Jian Mo nodded in Gu Beichen''s arms and looked at the flying scenery outside the window with faint tears. Xiao Yue finally stood beside Mo Shaochen as she wished. Her rebirth and happiness... Were also hard won. Suddenly Jane Mo''s sight suddenly stagnated. I saw a sunflower field outside the window "What''s the matter?!" Gu Beichen felt the rigidity of the people in his arms and asked with concern. Jane Mo looked out of the window, but she couldn''t see the sunflower field. "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo got up, looked at Gu Beichen with a slight frown and said, "I suddenly want to go to Mo palace to have a look..." Chapter 1021 Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and a pair of ink pupils looked at Jian Mo deeply... There was a slight worry at the bottom of his eyes. Jane Mo smiled astringently at the corners of her mouth, lying on Gu Beichen''s shoulder and slowly opened her mouth: "ah Chen, I''m fine." Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo and made a soft ''um'' sound in his throat. "I just saw a sunflower and suddenly thought of the ink palace..." there was a touch of sadness in Jian Mo''s voice, but it was not very strong. "At that time, I wanted to plant the sunflower seeds you gave me there." "Well..." Gu Beichen has answered softly. "I''ll think about Xiao Yan''s departure, but I won''t tangle." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered again. Jian Mo pulled down the corners of her mouth, gently rubbed her head on Gu Beichen''s shoulder, took her mobile phone and sent a wechat to Li Xiaoyue: Xiaoyue, the transformation from a best friend to a relative, we have been each other''s driving force in our life, starting towards happiness together "If you want to go, we can go and have a look." Gu Beichen spoke slowly when Jian Mo sent out a wechat. Jane Mo raised her eyes to Gu Beichen. He lowered his eyes in time. "I don''t reject there, if you can face it..." Gu Beichen''s voice was a little quiet. Putting down the best performance is actually facing it. They will usher in another child. He doesn''t want Mo''er''s heart to be a little unable to let go and cause pressure. "OK." Jane Mo blinked her eyes gently. The train is flying, and the scenery passing by is all along the way. It will change, but it will not change! For a while, the sea breeze hit, and the sunflowers turned like waves. Green leaves, orange flower plates, swing out beautifully in the sun "Here you are, stone!" Star took a small bunch of grapes in his hand, grabbed one and stuffed it into Shi Shaoqin''s mouth. Shi Shaoqin chewed with a smile, but all of a sudden, the beautiful handsome face coagulated slightly. In the depths of his narrow eyes, there was a touch of strange emotion. "Delicious!" Star smiled and nodded. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, "have you eaten?" Star shook his head. His black crystal eyes were full of smiles, so he grabbed another one and gave it to Shi Shaoqin, "give it to the stones!" Shi Shaoqin put a spoiled smile on the corner of his mouth, and his heart was softened by star. How can he care how sour the grapes are?! The joy of star feeding Shi Shaoqin here, except when eating the first one, the look behind Shi Shaoqin is that the grape is sweeter than honey "I think my teeth are going to be sour..." Xiao Siyue ''sizzled'' and swallowed with acid, "how did Qin Shao eat those grapes in his heart?" "As long as it''s given by star, I think Qin Shao thinks it''s delicious in the world..." Carney said casually without knowing what he was playing. Xiao Siyue swallowed uncontrollably and looked at Shi Jue Chi, "Jue is less, you are too bad..." Shi juechi just looked at the big and small people feeding and eating by the sunflower bed and became thoughtful The grape, which star just gave him, is very sour. He asked star to eat for stone. Sure enough, Shaoqin ate very calmly In fact, he is a little worried about star now. The better Shaoqin treats him, the more worried he is. Everything has two sides. For Shaoqin, it is a good thing to soften his heart, but it has also become the biggest weakness. As far as star is concerned, it''s ok if he can keep this beautiful all the time, but he''s afraid that in such an environment, after all Shi juechi sighed and walked over. In due time, star has fed a small bunch of sour grapes to Shi Shaoqin. "Wash your hands, eh?" Shi Shaoqin looked at star''s sticky hands. When star saw that Shi Shaoqin had eaten them all, he nodded happily and ran to the castle Just after star entered the castle, Shi Shaoqin''s whole handsome face sank, "who prepared the fruit?" "It''s the kitchen..." the servant''s bitter gourd face whispered in a tearful voice, "the grapes are used in the kitchen to get juice and side dishes, not to eat... Little young master, he wants to take... And no one dares... Dare to stop..." The servant hesitated. At last, he wanted to die. "Star gave me one. I asked him to bring it to you..." Shi juechi''s voice sounded softly and timely. He motioned the servant to step back first, and then looked at Shi Shaoqin with a smile, "I just saw that you didn''t eat very happy?" "..." Shi Shaoqin''s face became darker. Shi juechi copied his pocket with both hands and deepened his smile at the corners of his mouth. "If you don''t like it, you can refuse." "Hum!" Shi Shaoqin snorted coldly and walked to the ancient castle. Jue Chi knows what''s on his mind And pet star, he thought, he liked it! "After the notice, star is not allowed to touch such sour things in the future..." Shi Shaoqin explained coldly. It doesn''t matter if he eats it. Star''s teeth are long and neat. It''s not good for him. "Shaoqin, children have children''s curiosity. Don''t you think... Your protection may not be good for star?" Shi juechi turned to look at Shi Shaoqin and asked in a condensed voice. Shi Shaoqin looked back slightly and walked in without saying anything The mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. Without stopping, he took out his eyes and answered the call. "Qin Shao, Gu Beichen is going to enter the Mo palace." Shi Shaoqin immediately stopped with a frown and looked slightly at star who had washed his hands. What did Beichen think of or want to find out? "Block the Mo palace," Shi Shaoqin replied coldly. "No one is allowed to approach except necessities." "Yes!" "Watch his movements at any time. If you have an intention to enter the Mo palace, report at any time..." Shi Shaoqin ordered and hung up the phone. If you just want to come and have a look, Beichen will not come in as tough as last time. If tough comes in, it seems... He may have found star. Thinking of this, Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed gently, revealing a deep light ¡­¡­ The night in Los Angeles came quietly after a busy day. "Brother Yu, I heard that Chen Yu will start to inspect all branches of the Eastern District tomorrow..." Qiao Rui said bitterly, "it is said that the first one is here." "It''s all right. Anyway, I''ll fix me and you..." Ye Chenyu smiled evil. "We are brothers!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± As soon as Qiao Rui and the people who changed their clothes heard it, a burst of wailing filled the air. Ye Chenyu looked at everyone with a sad look of "how did you get such a captain", drove away from the special police team with a happy mood, and stopped when he passed the blues. Blues is located in a luxurious business district. It always gives people a sense of precipitation. After parking the car, ye Chenyu enters the blues and greets the bartender "Brother Yu, I just got a batch of wine today. There are good ones. Would you like to try them?" Ye Chenyu sat lazily on the high chair in front of the bar. "Did you enter or did Beichen go abroad?" "The boss cleaned it up..." "That must be tasted." Ye Chenyu looked more and more evil. The bar snapped its fingers and turned to get the wine. Timely Chen Chen stepped in with high-heeled sandals, a white shoulder stand collar shirt, seven point khaki trousers, curled hair and arrogant steps Ye Chenyu''s boring sight deviated from the past, and he didn''t know whether it was inertia or something. Chen Yu also looked at it, and they immediately met up. Just at a glance, the lightning flint between the two people condensed a layer of aperture, as if ready to fight at any time Chapter 1022 Chen Yu didn''t expect to meet Ye Chenyu in blues. There was a trace of examination on his proud and charming face. Blues is a famous red wine gathering place in Los Angeles. It is said that the boss behind the scenes is Gu Beichen of the emperor. Just this tone, the things here can be imagined to be treasures. Naturally, the price is not affordable to ordinary people. Nowadays, the apparent income of civil servants is transparent. Even if ye Chenyu has an undercover bonus, it''s definitely not enough to taste wine here Well, for him, maybe it''s just drinking. "What a coincidence!" Ye Chenyu certainly saw what Chen Yu was thinking. With his usual ruffian smile and a pair of eyes, he took back his provocation and added a bit of evil spirit. "It''s really a coincidence to meet you here!" Chen Yu''s voice was filled with awe inspiring. Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows, but smiled silently. At the right time, the bartender came over with two wine bottles and a cup in his hand. "Brother Yu, I found you something you like..." The bartender winked, put down the glass and wine bottle, and handed another wine to Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu took it, and the evil smile on the corner of his mouth deepened, "Rose Brut..." he was surprised and then smiled, "it seems that there are really a lot of good things this time." "It''s necessary. The boss cleaned it himself. How can there be bad things back?" The bartender snapped his fingers and began to open another bottle of red wine. He poured a glass of red wine and handed it to Ye Chenyu. Then he raised his eyebrow and said, "Chateau 1990." Ye Chenyu took it, first shook the glass, looked at the hanging glass of red wine, and put it under his nose to smell His movements are free and full of the evil charm of laziness. Even his movements of lifting a glass of wine are full of the charm of the wild. "How''s it going?" Asked the bartender. Ye Chenyu nodded, aftertaste the liquor, and at the same time, one side of his mouth overflowed with evil smile and said, "the good year of Chateau, coupled with the unique brewing technology, what else can I be picky about?" The bartender raised his eyebrows and nodded, very much in agreement. Chen Yu walked over, "Chateau 1990, this cup is worth at least two or three thousand, and rose Brut..." She picked up the unopened rose Brut and turned it over. Then she raised her eyebrows and looked at Ye Chenyu. "This sparkling wine costs almost two thousand one bottles in China." Ye Chenyu spent almost two-thirds of his salary. Ye Chenyu was still smiling, but he didn''t need to explain. Of course, he doesn''t need to explain "This beautiful woman is very strange..." the bartender propped up on the bar and asked with a smile. Chen Yu glanced at the bartender, "I just returned home and was introduced by my friend." "Do you know brother Yu?" The bartender raised his eyebrows and looked at Ye Chenyu. "One side..." Chen Yu sat down on a high chair with rose Brut in his hand. "You like it, send you?" Ye Chenyu said with an evil smile. Chen Yu''s smile at the corners of her mouth was completely superficial, but she didn''t smile. Her eyes gradually deepened and looked at Ye Chenyu and asked, "I''m quite willing to......" she sneered, "you send me, are you sure your economy can afford it?" Ye Chenyu''s evil smile deepened and looked at the bartender. "It''s all right. Brother Yu is on credit here..." the bartender said with a smile. "He''ll give it to you and he''ll just sign the bill." "Credit?!" Chen Yu immediately frowned and looked at the bartender. The bartender nodded, smiled and said, "brother Yu said that he will find someone raised by the rich woman in the future. He will pay on credit first, and when he finds the rich woman, he will come and pay the bill..." "..." Chen Yu immediately twitched uncontrollably at the corners of his mouth and looked at Ye Chenyu with obvious disdain. "You really have a mind!" "Thank you!" Ye Chenyu was not embarrassed at all, and completely took Chen Yu''s words as a compliment. Chen Yu snorted coldly, put down rose Brut in his hand and got off the high chair, "give me wine with your future woman. You have the face to give it, but I haven''t the face to take it..." Coldly put down a word, Chen turned and walked to the wine tasting area inside "Tut Tut," said the bartender, looking at Chen''s cold and arrogant back. "I said brother Yu, this woman seems to have a problem with you!" "My immediate boss, don''t you think?" Ye Chenyu said, shaking his glass gently. The bartender immediately stared at Ye Chenyu in surprise and opened his mouth. After a while, he grinned and said, "I''ll go. Will it be bad for you if I just joked like that?" "No!" "Ah?!" Ye Chenyu smiled evil, turned the high chair slightly and looked at Chen Yu, "because she had an opinion on me." "..." the bartender gasped at the corners of his mouth and couldn''t stand it. "Then you deliberately let her misunderstand." "What misunderstanding?" Ye Chenyu looked back. "I was determined to find a rich woman to settle the bill!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The bartender was speechless and choked. The wine Ye Chenyu drinks here is free from the boss, okay "Don''t worry, if I really find a rich woman, Beichen will ask me for the money for the wine I drink." Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows, took the wine glass and got off the high chair. As he walked towards the wine tasting area, his voice said lazily, "wrap rose Brut and give it to the woman later." "If you send it, people have to accept it..." "That''s your business!" Ye Chenyu looked back at the bartender, squeezed his eyes and said, "I''ll flirt with my boss." "..." the bartender was speechless again. Of course, ye Chenyu didn''t really flirt with Chen Yu. He just walked to Gu Beichen''s exclusive area with a wine cup "Romannee conti, there must be no public area..." "What do you mean?" Chen Qingyi. The bartender shrugged. "There should be in the boss''s private cellar, but..." Chen Yu frowned and understood what the bartender meant. Private places are naturally not open to the outside world. However, the annual output of romannee conti she is looking for is too low. Even if she has money, she may not be able to buy it. But she had to find this to coax her father! Ye Chenyu stopped and looked at Chen Yu deeply. Without the previous domineering, she was obviously lost and hesitant on her beautiful and proud face. "How can I get this bottle of wine from a private cellar?" Chen Yu pondered and asked. "Yes," said the boss''s friend, laughing, "or the bartender''s friend!" "..." Chen Yu frowned. She doesn''t know Gu Beichen, and Gu Beichen''s friends... She doesn''t know either! Just when Chen Yu sighed helplessly and thought about how to coax Chen Qishan back, his wrist was suddenly caught Chen Yu''s sense of crisis turned his instinctive wrist and grabbed her with the other hand. Ye Chenyu''s wrist turned over When he broke free from his wrist, he waved his fist at Ye Chenyu Chapter 1023 Ye Chenyu''s upper body fell back slightly. Chen Yu''s fist almost crossed his face, and he could clearly feel the boxing style. The bartender stared in surprise. Unexpectedly, the woman could break away from ye Chenyu and fight back at the same time! Chen Yu also saw the person clearly after she fell with one punch, and her face was suddenly cold. "Tut Tut, if you don''t agree, start fighting..." Ye Chenyu shook his head and said with some disgust, "it''s hard for women to find their husband." Chen Yu''s face gradually became angry. She slightly coagulated her Phoenix eyes and scratched fiercely. "Do you believe it or not," said Ye Chenyu, bending over slightly and in an evil voice, "if you do it again, you don''t need me to do anything, you will be invited out... And don''t want to come in blues again." Chen Yu suddenly clenched his hand. She is a figure in the upper class society. Although she is often not in China, she heard her friends in the circle mention it before coming to blues. Gu Beichen is here to relax. Naturally, no one can cause trouble here. However, in the face of Ye Chenyu''s dislike, Chen Yu felt that he had never met such an annoying man. "And..." Ye Chenyu got up slowly, smiled at Chen Yu and said, "in the near future, romannee conti, who can appear in Los Angeles, is estimated to be in blues." ¡°¡­¡­¡± In a word, I can see the banter under the good play. Not only didn''t let Chen Yu''s anger disappear, but also made her block more powerful. Ye Chenyu felt that if he went down, I''m afraid Chen Zhen could really fight with him and wouldn''t tease her He handed the wine glass in his hand to the smiling bartender, then grabbed Chen and walked forward. This time, he didn''t give Chen Yu a chance to break free, and his strength was absolutely in place. "If you want romannee conti, put away your thorns." Ye Chenyu kept pulling Chen Yu. Chen Yu hasn''t reacted yet. The person has been pulled into the private area by Ye Chenyu. In a more secluded environment, there is a steady and casual feeling. Everywhere is full of the smell of men, which makes people have an unspeakable sense of security "Here is..." "Gu Beichen''s private area." Ye Chenyu opened his mouth lightly and then let go of Chen Yu. "That''s the entrance of the wine cellar." "How can you get in here?" Chen Yu is puzzled about ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu copied his pocket with both hands. "Chen Ju was born in a rich family. I''m just a gangster... It''s strange to know one or two friends?" "Oh, it''s not surprising that gangsters know the president of the emperor!" Chen Shuo coldly hissed and didn''t say much, so he went to the wine cellar. Ye Chenyu shrugged and suddenly felt that Chen Yu was a little awkward. She is very proud, but it seems that Ye Chenyu tilted his head slightly and pondered. He found that he couldn''t find a particularly suitable word to describe himself. In short, this woman will never be as tough as she shows! Ye Chenyu turned around and went down the wine cellar. In Gu Beichen''s blues, one is an external wine cellar and the other is private. In private, most of them are treasures, and many of them are hard to buy on the market. Of course, we will reserve some of our friends'' favorite drinks Gu Beichen is hard to make friends with. But once you make this friend, it''s definitely a blessing in your life Chen Yu gently crossed the wine bottle with his fingers, looking for romannee conti while wondering about ye Chenyu. It seems that she needs to re-examine this talent pair. Lu Bureau talked to her today and specifically mentioned Ye Chenyu A person who has been undercover for so many years, has solved so many cases and can get out of the body. She knows very well the ability of this person. But obviously, his ability is not only in solving cases. "Ah..." In the wine cellar where the light was not very bright, suddenly a figure flashed out. Chen Yu was a woman. For a moment, his thoughts couldn''t turn over and was frightened. When she saw that it was Ye Chenyu, Chen Yu felt that she was annoyed by the man because of the foolishness on his face, as if she could see through everything. "So timid?" Ye Chenyu leaned on the wine cabinet with his arms around his chest. His eyes were joking but looked at Chen Yu deeply, "it''s not like the attribute of your overlord flower..." "Ye Chenyu, do you think it''s interesting to pretend evil in front of women?" Chen Yu sank. "Or do you think it''s good to get close to me in private?" Ye Chenyu smiled, "does every capable woman have the same narcissism as you?" Chen Yu suddenly stared. "Or..." Ye Chenyu''s vision gradually became deep, "... Some emotions in your heart can only be covered up with narcissism and pride?" Shua''s face suddenly changed. Even without the brain to think, ye Chenyu has been punched. Ye Chenyu''s body suddenly deviated. Because the strength was too strong, the wine cabinet fluctuated slightly. "I can''t afford to do it here..." Ye Chenyu said in a lazy voice. Chen Yu sneered, "if it''s broken, I''ll pay!" Words fall, don''t give ye Chenyu time to consider, a spin kick has been straight to Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu didn''t do it, just avoided Fortunately, the space of gubeichen wine cellar will not be very crowded. In fact, it will not have much impact on two people''s performance. Ye Chenyu just didn''t expect that his words had dug into Chen Yu''s pain. Two people, you come and I go. Chen Yu''s attack is swift and violent without being sloppy. It''s not like a woman''s strength at all. Ye Chenyu began to avoid easily, but soon he reassessed Chen Yu. If it is said that during the rescue, Chen''s action was rapid and straightforward. Then, at this moment, she was full of angry moves. If ye Chenyu hadn''t been fighting for so many years, I''m afraid she would have lost the favor. Even so, ye Chenyu just avoided from the beginning, and now he has been forced to take the right move. There was a bang Chen Yu''s high-heeled shoes suddenly stepped on Ye Chenyu''s abdomen. Ye Chenyu immediately stepped back and hit the wine cabinet. Fortunately, the wine cabinet just shook a few times and didn''t fall down! However, the sour feeling of the thin high heel falling on the abdomen immediately twisted Ye Chenyu''s face "Shit, Chen Yu, don''t think I don''t have to do my best. I''m afraid of you!" Ye Yu''s animality was immediately aroused. Chen Yu sneered and looked contemptuously at Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu narrowed his eyes in an instant, got up and opened his posture Attack, defend, attack again... Step back and defend! Two people come and go. At this moment, neither side has any mercy. Suddenly Chen Yu raised his legs and went directly towards Ye Chenyu''s face door with thin high heels Ye Chenyu leaned slightly and didn''t give Chen Shu a chance to return to her feet. He grabbed her slender ankle with one hand. Chen Yu''s eyes were cold, and his other foot was lifted by the strength of Ye Chenyu''s wrist, hooked Ye Chenyu''s legs and feet, and tried to take advantage of the situation to pull back the captured ankle. However, it''s too late to say and too fast to come! The accident happened instantaneously When Chen Chen wants to hook Ye Chenyu, ye Chenyu suddenly exerts herself. She suddenly loses her focus and doesn''t fully grasp her strength At the moment when ye Chenyu fell to the ground, she was pulled down. The most important thing is Ye Chenyu lay on the ground, while Chen Yu sat on his important part. What is sour cool?! Ye Chenyu felt that the high-heeled shoes had just kicked him in the abdomen, which was nothing at all! At this moment, it is true Ye Chenyu''s face was extremely bad. Looking at Chen Yu, he gritted his teeth and said, "so... You like to press men!" Chapter 1024 Chen Chen''s posture is a little strange. Before she knew what ye Chenyu meant, her face suddenly cracked Just before she had time to respond, ''stab'' came! In the originally dead space, such a voice is particularly loud Ye Chenyu''s posture is lying on the ground, his vision is slightly drooping... He sees where the sound comes from! Even though the clothes on Chen Yu''s body are luxuries and of good quality, they can''t stand the fight just now and the large-scale opening at this time, so that his pants are torn. Embarrassment and embarrassment spread in an instant Ye Chenyu didn''t see the exact source of Chu''s curse, but he heard a crisp sound of "pa". With great strength, Chen Yu slapped Ye Chenyu''s face to one side. Ye Chenyu only felt that his cheeks were hot, and there was a smell of fishy and sweet in his mouth "Obscene!" Chen Yu angrily clenched his teeth and scolded, pressed the floor and stood up. However, because it was summer and there was no coat to cover it up, Chen was in a dilemma Ye Chenyu showed his teeth and swallowed. His teeth broke the meat wall of his mouth, and the astringent blood gas was swallowed by him with spittle. He didn''t stand up, and the bitterness of his lower body didn''t pass. Ye Chenyu slowly turned his head and licked the place where his teeth were broken. He looked at Chen Chen coldly. "Fight, you want to fight!" Ye Chenyu said coldly, "why do you expect me to take responsibility in the end?" Leng Chi''s words were ironic. Ye Chenyu sat up and touched his beaten left cheek. Shit The first slap in my life was dumped by a woman! Ye Chenyu thought more and more, looked at Chen''s angry face and sneered. Chen Yu clenched his teeth tightly and burst out a sharp but embarrassed sight in his eyes She didn''t move. The pants are torn. How can she go out like this?! Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu''s embarrassment, but he wanted face again. He hummed coldly and stood up "Woman, it''s better to be gentle!" Ye Chenyu glanced at Chen Yu lightly, turned around and said coldly, "wait!" Chen Chen didn''t move, but his eyes were slightly red. Fortunately, the light in the wine cellar is not very bright because of the temperature control. Ye Chenyu came back after a while with a man''s shirt in his hand. "Here!" Ye Chenyu handed the shirt to Chen, "new." Chen Yu didn''t answer, but a pair of Phoenix eyes stared at Ye Chenyu When ye Chenyu saw that Chen didn''t answer for a long time, he turned his eyes and spit: I haven''t stared at you yet. You did it first. But I think it''s impossible for ye Chenyu to quarrel with a woman like Chen Yu under such embarrassment. He came forward, unfolded his shirt and took his sleeve, so he planned to protect his shirt around Chen Yu''s waist "Do you still want to fight?" Chen Yu''s nerves were a little tense. While saying this, he had raised his fist. Ye Chenyu hissed coldly, grabbed Chen Yu with his big palm and twisted his arm behind him While Chen Yu''s anger rose again, he didn''t give her a chance to resist and pressed her on the side of the wine cabinet. "Ye Chenyu!" Chen Yu clenched his teeth in a hurry. "A woman is a woman..." Ye Chenyu snorted coldly, "what else can there be besides being brave?" At the same time, ye Chenyu has released the hand that imprisoned Chen Yu and put his shirt on the front from the back in time Then put the sleeve of the shirt on Chen''s slender waist and make a knot! Chen Chen''s movements were suddenly a little stiff. She raised her lower lip and crossed a touch of complex emotion at the bottom of her eyes. Ye Chenyu glanced at her, coldly took back his eyes and went to the other side of the wine cellar. Within a minute, he came back with a bottle of romannee conti in his hand. "You can go..." Ye Chenyu said indifferently, "remember to check out!" Then he took a deep look at Chen, turned and took the lead to walk outside the wine cellar. As he walked, he touched his left face and didn''t know what to whisper Looking at Ye Chenyu''s evil and ruffian back, Chen Yu gradually clenched his hand with red wine. The night wind blows slowly through the open shed Chen Yu stopped at the intersection of the red light. His sight shifted subconsciously and landed on the co pilot. A bottle of romannee conti and a bottle of rose Brut! "This bottle of rose Brut is from brother Yu," the bartender said directly when he saw that Chen Yu wanted to refuse. "Brother Yu said no, and this bottle of romannee conti is not for sale." Chen Yu looked back at the private area, but she couldn''t see anything because of the angle. "I''ll buy it myself..." Chen Yu looked back. "Sorry, this bottle is brother Yu''s wine. It can''t be sold twice!" The bartender shrugged. "You either accept the gift or... Romannee conti gives up!" Chen grabbed his wallet, looked at romannee conti, finally took the card to check out, and then took both drinks away. ''didi... '' Chen Yu suddenly recovered, looked back at the hurried car, saw the green light, and hurriedly started the car to leave. Because of the small episode in the wine cellar, Chen has no intention of going back to coax Chen Qishan. She went back to her apartment downtown, put the wine on the bar, kicked off her shoes and walked to the bathroom When he untied the men''s shirt tied around his waist, Chen''s action gradually stagnated. In my mind, I suddenly recalled the scene before the last pants cracked in the wine cellar. At that time What did ye Chenyu say?! "Originally, you like to press men!" Chen Chen''s eyes widened in an instant, and his face was uncontrollably "Teng" and became hot at once. She didn''t realize she was sitting there with him... Because her pants were cracked! Chen Yu only felt the position of his heart tremble. Although she is not very heavy, she can sit down with great strength, and... When she slapped him, she crushed him! Chen Yu''s face became hotter and hotter. In such a dignified atmosphere, she did a more embarrassing thing without knowing it! "Obscene!" Chen Chen gritted his teeth angrily and said angrily. He threw his shirt into the washing machine and opened the shower. However, she tried to throw all the problems to Ye Chenyu''s "obscene" thought, but finally found that her face was even hotter The night is intoxicated and people are slightly drunk. Ye Chenyu found ice from the refrigerator and wrapped it in cloth. Looking at the clear five finger prints in the mirror, he frowned. "Is this a woman or not?" Ye Chenyu make complaints about it, and begin to apply the ice to his slightly swollen face. "Can I see anyone tomorrow?" Ye Chenyu has a headache. It''s like this... When I go back tomorrow, I don''t know what I''ll be laughed at by those boys?! Ye Chenyu took back his sight in the mirror. While covering his face, he thought about whether to patrol directly tomorrow. He didn''t go back to the special police team. It''s just a pity that his total is good, but... It backfired! Chapter 1025 Mo palace. Dinner was put on the table one after another, and most of them were made according to star''s taste. Although, he can''t eat a few bites. "No!" Star''s childish voice came, looked at the baby stool with a disgusted face, pointed to the big chair and smiled at Shi Shaoqin. Star itself is very beautiful, with big eyes, black pupils and white and pink skin. Now, with a cute smile, everyone has only one idea. Who has the heart to refuse his request?! What''s more, Shi Shaoqin who "obeys" star! "OK." Shi Shaoqin rubbed star''s small head and put him on the chair next to him, "but be good, or go back to the baby stool." Star patted the table excitedly with his little hand. Because of his height, most of his head was under the table. He looked a little funny. Shi Shaoqin smiled helplessly, moved the chair forward and let star kneel on the chair. In this way, his small head exceeded the table. Star is more and more excited, as if he is an adult like Shi Shaoqin "Yes!" Star''s eyes were shining. He pointed to a plate of stew with a spoon. After dinner, he grinned and began to smile at Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin personally made star risotto. Before he finished it, his mobile phone began to vibrate. He didn''t care. He just took star''s risotto into his small bowl and put it in front of and behind star''s face before picking up his cell phone. Looking at the call, Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, glanced at star, got up and answered the phone "The ink palace is closed again?" Gu Beichen''s low voice came. "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered faintly. Gu Beichen''s thin lips sniffed, "recently, you seem to like blocking the ink palace." "What?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was soft. Eh, "it''s strange to block the ink palace?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deep, and then he opened his mouth calmly: "Mo''er wants to go over..." "If she wants to stay in Mo palace, she can!" Shi Shaoqin''s voice showed a trace of danger. Gu Beichen immediately frowned, "Shaoqin!" "Some things are past, but you can guarantee..." Shi Shaoqin narrowed his narrow eyes and slowly said the second half of the sentence, "... She won''t die because she saw what happened?" Gu Beichen was silent. "If you still want to bring her, I..." "Bang!" "Hissing..." "Doodle doodle..." Gu Beichen frowned. It seemed that there was a sound of something falling on the ground. Before he could hear it clearly, Shi Shaoqin had already hung up the phone. "Wow..." The sound of crying resounded in the restaurant. Everyone looked at star who fell to the ground trembling, nervous and worried Just a resounding sound came, and star almost didn''t come up in one breath. Everyone''s face turned white in an instant. Fortunately, when Shi Shaoqin strode over, star held his breath and immediately began to cry. Shi Shaoqin picked up star. His beautiful face was completely remorse. "Good, don''t cry... The stone is bad... Huh?" Shi Shaoqin was flustered. He squatted on his knees and comforted star. At the same time, he looked at the red and swollen place on his forehead. The whole person became sad because of self blame. "The stone is bad..." "Good, huh?!" Shi Shaoqin coaxed star awkwardly. He wanted to touch star''s forehead, but he didn''t dare to touch it. "Go and find a doctor..." Shi Shaoqin looked at the bewildered servants with anger on his face. Suddenly, the servant hurried to the doctor. The whole restaurant was in a mess because of star''s wrestling. Shi juechi came in, asked about the servant and walked over. On star''s small face, because of the pain and grievance, tears poured out. This should be star''s first fall. He used to fall when he learned to walk, but he would never fall so heavy. "In fact, the growth of children is inevitable..." Shi juechi said, looking at Shi Shaoqin''s tight face because of self blame. "We also stumbled and grew up." "It''s different!" Shi Shaoqin gritted his teeth, "star''s health is not completely good..." Shi Jue Chi frowned, "Shaoqin, don''t you think this will put pressure on star''s growth?" He said in a deep voice, "for parents, such a fall will hurt and blame themselves... But they also know that this is the necessary growth of children!" Shi Shaoqin''s face became more heavy. Shi Jue Chi lowered her eyes and gently wiped the tears on star''s cheek with her finger belly. The voice came from a far-reaching voice: "Shaoqin, where''s your calmness?" The atmosphere was a little dignified, and the air solidified. Star seemed to feel it. He gradually changed from crying to sobbing. His tears were hazy. He looked at Shi Shaoqin pitifully. "The stone blows... Sobbing..." star''s small body takes a puff. Shi Shaoqin''s originally tight facial lines gradually softened He leaned over and gently blew on star''s forehead. At this moment, his strong heart seemed to recover and soften. When the doctor came, he saw such a scene. Such a picture is so beautiful that they feel distressed. It''s not star, but Shi Shaoqin who covers all the softness with indifference ¡­¡­ Los Angeles, the next day. The summer sunshine brings its energy early and roasts all things in heaven and earth. The special police team of the East District of Los Angeles had finished all the morning exercises when the white-collar workers got up and were ready to pack up for work. "Team Joe, hasn''t team ye come today?" The internal staff of the special police team came over with a folder. "We need supplies this month. We have to sign it for purchase." "I..." Qiao Rui had hardly spoken when his cell phone rang. He took it out and saw that it was Ye Chenyu. He looked at the internal staff and raised his eyebrows. "Say Cao Cao, Cao Cao!" Then he answered the phone and put it in his ear, "brother Yu?" "If I patrol with you today, I won''t go to the team." Ye Chenyu''s voice was somewhat lazy. Qiao Rui frowned, "brother Yu, Chen bureau is coming today?" "That''s not right?" Ye Chenyu rubbed his eyebrows, "save me from conflict..." "But it''s not good if you''re not here?" "What''s wrong?" "Don''t pay attention to leadership!" Qiao Rui rolled his eyes. Ye Chenyu smiled. "Is it important for leaders to inspect... Or patrol?" In a word, choking Qiao Rui can''t refute. "Besides," Ye Chenyu got on the bus, "I''m not here. She didn''t have room to vent on me. She looked at me and left... Or do you want her to find something?" "Forget it, you''d better not come back." Qiao Rui grinned, "anyway, you don''t pay attention to the leadership, and you''ll find fault when you look back." Qiao Rui handed the folder to the other side. "Oh, by the way..." Qiao Rui said hurriedly when ye Chenyu was about to hang up the phone. "The internal staff took a list of supplies." "You see, the funds will be approved. Try not to make the brothers tired. There is no adjustment yet." Ye Chenyu started the car and said, "hang up." He hung up the phone, started the car and left the parking lot But before the car left the parking lot of the apartment building, the car phone rang. Ye Chenyu looked at the call and pressed the answer button, "what else?" "Brother Yu, there''s a notice from the general situation..." Qiao Rui''s voice was gnashing his teeth. "Today, Chen Bureau will bring the action team... Arrive in an hour, so that you can arrange a temporary confrontation between the criminal police and the special police as soon as possible!" Chapter 1026 "How did you suddenly have to compete?" Ye Chenyu pulled over and stopped the car. His voice was the usual evil spirit. "The overall situation was decided temporarily," Qiao Rui said with a headache. "It seems that it''s because I heard that the first stop of Chen Bureau''s inspection today is us, so I just made a competition..." Ye Chenyu frowned slightly. "I guess it''s mainly because of the earth bomb a few days ago and the robbery the night before..." Ye Chenyu leaned against the car seat and his eyes became deep. "Before and after a few days, there were two things..." Qiao Rui sighed, "frankly, that''s the matter of the criminal police team and the special police team." Ye Chenyu certainly understands that although it is handled quickly and there is no great harm, it has a social impact in the end. Qiao Rui leaned against the wall and said, "both Chen Ju and you are ''newcomers'' to lead the team. I''m afraid the overall situation wants to attack and see the bottom of you two." Ye Chenyu pulled down the rearview mirror, turned his head and looked at his cheek It''s not swollen, but when you look closely, you can still vaguely see the hand prints. "Brother Yu," Qiao Rui asked, "should I arrange someone or wait for you to come back?" "You can arrange..." Ye Chenyu pulled the rearview mirror. "I''ll go back to the team now." "OK." After Qiao Rui answered, ye Chenyu hung up. His vision gradually looked at the front deeply. The flow of people to work was in a hurry, and there was always a mechanical atmosphere. The corners of his mouth pulled, ye Chenyu lowered his eyes, started the car and went to the special police team By the time we got to the team, the seven man team had assembled. Maybe it was because everyone was excited or nervous, and no one paid attention to the marks on Ye Chenyu''s face. "Brother Yu, will Chen Bureau fight with you first?" Qiao Rui asked curiously. Ye Chenyu glanced at him and inadvertently crossed the scene in the blues cellar last night Although he was slapped, the little brother also suffered. However, for a woman whose pants are torn in that posture in front of a man In fact, he was not embarrassed by Chen. "Team ye, the people from the criminal police team are here..." Ye Chenyu thought, a voice came from the walkie talkie. "Yes." Ye Chenyu answered and motioned Qiao Rui to lead the team to the training ground. "Joe, why do I feel murderous?" "I also think there will be a good play later..." "I just don''t know who is in charge of the ups and downs of overlord flower against our ruffian captain!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Everyone lined up to the training ground, but their mouths were not idle. Qiao Rui glanced at the group and left his mouth, but cunning flashed in his eyes. Seriously, he is very unkind and wants to see After all, they can''t find out how much strength brother Yu has. I just think this person is very deep. Every time something happens, he seems to be able to face and deal with it calmly. "Hey, did you just find..." suddenly, a team member said, "there''s something wrong with team Ye''s face?" "Kissed?" Someone immediately asked with a smile. The man turned his eyes. "No, I feel there are some faint red marks... I can see it clearly from my point of view." "Didn''t notice..." One by one, he frowned and looked at Qiao Rui. Who says men don''t gossip? However, men''s gossip is different from women Women are interested in gossip about who they are, while men are only interested in gossip about people around them, because that is the adjustment of life. "I''ll pay attention later!" Qiao Rui winked with the confrontation team. Suddenly, everyone nodded one by one. Ye Chenyu changed his training clothes and went to the training ground. From a distance, he saw that the people of the criminal police team were already in the whole team. "Ye Dui..." Zhang Chao, a vice captain of the criminal police commando who led the team, came forward to say hello when he saw Ye Chenyu coming. "Chen Bureau has something to do temporarily, and the overall situation has decided to go to the competition. Today, I lead the team." Ye Chenyu''s mouth was filled with a ruffian smile, "there are quite a lot of ''accidents''..." "It''s true that you said so." Zhang Chao smiled, "the overall situation thought that Chen Ju was coming today, so he said to have a competition, but Chen Ju didn''t come in the end..." Ye Chenyu''s face remained unchanged, but there was a hint of playfulness in the depths of his eyes. "By the way," Zhang Chao suddenly remembered something and took out a small long box from the car. "This is what Chen Ju asked me to give you. He said that there will be a chance to fight in the future, so don''t lose too much." Ye Chenyu took it and was unable to laugh or cry. Zhang Chao patted him on the shoulder. "I heard that you and Chen Ju tied the knot the day before yesterday for the first time?" He glanced at the small box in Ye Chenyu''s hand. "It seems to be the afternoon of the war." Ye Chenyu didn''t open it in a hurry. According to Chen Yu''s awkward and tough character, if the things inside were very unfavorable to him, didn''t he show jokes?! "Women are too strong to be leaders among men..." Zhang Chao said helplessly, "in the future, I will be worse than you." Ye Chenyu''s evil ruffian smiled, "ask for more blessings, you can only." Zhang Chao shrugged and then took people to the training ground. If Chen Yu didn''t come, the match became a routine. There was no accident. Interpol to swat, and finally no surprise, SWAT won. Originally, Qiao Rui wanted to find out the marks on Ye Chenyu''s face after the confrontation. Unfortunately, ye Chenyu didn''t give them such a chance at all. Ye Chenyu sat in the car with a ointment in his hand Removing blood stasis and promoting blood circulation. His eyes gradually became deep, and the corners of his mouth were hooked with evil and charming smile. "How could there be such an awkward woman?" Ye Chenyu murmured, put the ointment aside, started the car and left the special police team. ¡­¡­ Emperor group. In the vice president''s office, the air is so frozen that people can''t breathe. "Is this your ability?" Xiao Jing looked at Zhao Qianyu coldly, "I doubt how you passed the interview and became my Secretary!" At the same time, Xiao Jing threw the folder in his hand in front of Zhao Qianyu. Zhao Qianyu''s eyes hung slightly under the black frame glasses. Under the light of the lens, she could vaguely see the self blame at the bottom of her eyes. "I''ll do it again..." Zhao Qianyu bit it. "It must be done before the meeting." Xiao Jing looked at Zhao Qianyu coldly and didn''t speak. Zhao Qianyu waited for a while. Seeing that Xiao Jing didn''t intend to speak, he silently came forward, took the folder, and turned out of the office. Xiao Jing looked at Zhao Qianyu fiercely, and his face was tense under indifference. Until Zhao Qianyu left the door, Xiao Jing''s eyes gradually became deep "Dong Dong!" "Enter!" Susan came in with two cups of coffee in her hand. She put a cup in front of Xiao Jing and then sat down opposite. "I''ve seen the pre meeting information. It''s very good for novices..." She looked at Xiao Jing carefully. "You seem to like to embarrass her!" Chapter 1027 Xiao Jing was paralyzed in his seat with a headache. His handsome face was cold and covered with a layer of haze. "You said, if she and her twin sister were alone..." Xiao Jing said suspiciously, "is it possible?!" "..." Susan frowned. "Isn''t that why you embarrassed her "Otherwise?" Susan couldn''t stand turning her eyes. "Xiao Jing, are you nervous because of Chen Shao''s squeeze?" "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth. "Besides," Susan said jokingly, "don''t say whether Zhao Qianyu has a twin sister. Even if they are alone, since they dare to come to you, do you think she will show her vest so easily?" A rhetorical question is full of contempt without reservation. Xiao Jing''s face suddenly darkened Susan got up with coffee, looked at Xiao Jing with some sympathy, turned and walked out of the office "I may go to Donghai city tomorrow," Xiao Jing said, looking at Susan. "I may not be able to come back on Friday. Remember to attend the graduation ceremony of young master Jie''s kindergarten!" Susan looked back. "You can forget everything. This will never happen." After a pause, she frowned slightly and said, "but don''t you plan to tell Chen Shao and his wife?" "Young master Jie said that the graduation ceremony of the kindergarten was nothing special and did not disturb their world." "It hurts to be sensible..." Susan sighed, opened the door of the office and went out. Time passes day by day. In the twinkling of an eye, it''s Friday The hot and dry midsummer became overcast on this day, as if it was going to rain at any time. Just as the sky became darker and the morning came, a plane from London slowly docked at Los Angeles International Airport with the friction sound of landing. After leaving for three months, Jane Mo looked at the familiar scenery and took a deep breath. "No matter how beautiful it is outside, there is no comfort from home..." Jane Mo glanced at Gu Beichen, who was driving, looking a little lazy. "Xiao Jie''s graduation ceremony is about noon. Go back and have a rest first, huh?" Gu Beichen asked indulgently. Jane Mo looked at the time. "When you get home, wash and go to school... It''s almost time." She tilted her head and looked at Gu Beichen again. "Besides, I slept on the plane." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered softly, "you''re not tired." "I haven''t seen the milk bag for a long time, and I''m not in the mood to sleep..." Jane Mo''s lips smiled. Originally, she wanted to go to Mo palace to have a look I want to see the place where I lived with Xiao Yan. Although it is very dark, it is such a beautiful place. But the Mo palace was blocked, and she suddenly lost the mood to play. Fortunately, chatting with Xiao Yue online, the woman was so happy that she leaked her mouth because she "lived together" with Mo Shaochen. Just thinking, Jane Mo''s cell phone rang. It has been unchanged for a long time, Su Junli''s piano music. Jane Mo took out her mobile phone and saw that it was Li Xiaoyue. She smiled and picked it up "Girl, get off the plane?!" Li Xiaoyue asked while looking at the stuffy porridge on the stove. "Didn''t you give the milk bag?" Jane Mo asked with an eyebrow. Li Xiaoyue stopped. "I don''t want Xiaojie to laugh at my IQ less..." she said, "I just give you an explanation. Don''t let me slip, I told you." "Don''t worry, I will keep such a thing confidential." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and looked at her beautiful face, which was relaxed because of the small smile. "That''s good..." Li Xiaoyue answered, "I guess you and your general manager Gu suddenly appear. I''m afraid Xiaojie is very happy." "That''s necessary!" Jian Mo and Gu Beichen looked at each other and smiled. Li Xiaoyue and Jian Mo chatted casually again before hanging up. After Mo Shaochen washed, he came over and hugged Li Xiaoyue from behind. "After breakfast, why don''t you go somewhere with me first?" Li Xiaoyue had some doubts, but he didn''t ask. He just answered, "OK." "Don''t ask me where I''m going?" Mo Shaochen gently rubbed Li Xiaoyue between his nose. "Oh..." Li Xiaoyue''s eyes were filled with a smile. "Then, where shall we wait?" Mo Shaochen didn''t answer immediately, but was a little silent before he whispered: "cemetery..." "Cemetery?" Li Xiaoyue looked sideways at Mo Shaochen. "Tomorrow is the death day of my parents," Mo Shaochen still surrounded Li Xiaoyue. "Originally I wanted to talk to you tomorrow... But when I go to school, I want to formally introduce you to my aunt and uncle." Mo Shaochen''s eyes were deep, "as my wife..." Li Xiaoyue''s nose was a little sour and astringent. He suddenly understood what Mo Shaochen meant. His marriage should be known by his parents first. "OK..." Li Xiaoyue raised his lips with a sour nose. "Let''s go and say it to my father and mother first!" Mo Shaochen kissed Li Xiaoyue on the forehead, then kept the posture of holding back and waited for breakfast together ¡­¡­ Ye Chenyu looked at the gloomy weather, and the usual evil was restrained, with a touch of unspeakable sadness. "It''s breakfast..." mother ye brought the steamed steamed buns to the table. Ye Chenyu took back his sight and went to the table to sit down. While holding porridge for him, mother ye said, "when you go over, remember to tell your father about your recent situation..." "Yes." Ye Chenyu answered. Mother Ye sat down across the street with a sigh and didn''t speak any more. Ye Chenyu took a distressed look at his mother and didn''t say anything. He just ate. For so many years, mom has never been to the cemetery to see Dad, whether it''s guilt or resistance But these days every year, he knows that mom is more sad than anyone. He didn''t seriously go to see his father on his death day. At first, he was deliberately. Later, I''m afraid he was afraid of meeting Shaochen?! Wearing a white shirt and black suit pants, ye Chenyu drove the car to the cemetery Mo yezong bought the purple daisy for his mother on the way. Ye Chenyu held the flower''s hand and went up step by step Xu is the reason for today''s weather. Xu is that when people have bath hope, they have greed. It seems that this year''s mood is particularly heavy. Gently put the flowers in front of the tombstones of Mo Huai and Cen Yulan. A gust of wind blew, which clearly showed the comfort in midsummer, but it was cold to people''s heart because of sadness Ye Chenyu didn''t say anything about his recent situation. He just stood quietly in front of the tombstone and came every year as usual. "Dad, aunt..." Ye Chenyu said gently, "if I knew Shaochen, would you like to?" Gently, words float in the air At the same time, Mo Shaochen took Li Xiaoyue holding a white rose bouquet and walked up the steps to the tombstones of Mo Huai and Cen Yulan Chapter 1028 "Nervous?" Mo Shaochen felt that Li Xiaoyue''s hand was obviously stiff as he walked. Li Xiaoyue glanced at Mo Shaochen and nodded. "Don''t worry, I haven''t brought a woman here for so many years..." Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue and looked forward with a smile. "It''s not easy to bring one over. They must be happy." "It sounds like I''m saying this," Li Xiaoyue frowned. "If you bring any woman over, both father and mother will be happy?" "But the problem is..." Mo Shaochen glanced at Li Xiaoyue with a smile. Seeing that she was still a little nervous, she couldn''t help but deepen her smile. "Who did I finally bring?" "Have you taken Shen Chu?" Li Xiaoyue spit out. However, when I finished, I regretted "I..." "No special belt!" Mo Shaochen didn''t mind at all, "everyone plays in a circle. Beichen and she will come when they die..." "Oh..." the position of Li Xiaoyue''s heart was full of sweetness, and even embarrassed. Mo Shaochen stopped and said with obvious teasing at the bottom of his eyes: "most of the time, everyone comes by themselves, and occasionally the time is right..." After listening to Mo Shaochen''s explanation, Li Xiaoyue''s face turned red in an instant. "I don''t mind..." Li Xiaoyue said, suddenly embarrassed. She doesn''t mind, but she''s a little jealous "I know," Mo Shaochen continued, "I just want to explain to you, um... That''s all." Li Xiaoyue walked step by step with Mo Shaochen. At that moment, through each other''s palms, she felt an unprecedented peace of mind. The breeze came with "peace" under the silence Mo Shaochen took Li Xiaoyue and turned to the right. Far away, he saw a figure standing in front of his parents'' tombstone. Slightly frowned, Mo Shaochen had some doubts. He didn''t speak, but walked over with Li Xiaoyue who did psychological construction. Ye Chenyu was immersed in his thoughts and looked at Mo Huai, who was still very young on the tombstone. Gradually, his brain was empty. If it was the usual, Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue were getting closer and closer, he would have noticed it long ago. On the one hand, his thoughts are absent. On the other hand, he didn''t expect that tomorrow would be the death day of Mo Huai and Cen Yulan. Today, Mo Shaochen will come! When they approached, he felt it was too late "Ye Chenyu?!" Li Xiaoyue looked at Ye Chenyu in surprise and said, "Why are you here?!" Mo Shaochen didn''t say anything. He just looked at Ye Chenyu quietly with a deep smile in his eyes. Li Xiaoyue glanced at Mo Shaochen, and suddenly felt speechless. If I remember correctly, I heard before Ye Chenyu knew his senior brother, which should be shortly before the international trial. Even if we sympathize with each other, we should come tomorrow. Mo Shaochen looked at Ye Chenyu all the time. On the surface, there was not much emotional change. "What a surprise to meet you here..." Mo Shaochen took the lead in opening his mouth, and then his sight fell slightly on the bunch of purple daisies in front of the tombstone. For many years, when he died, he could see a bunch of wilting purple daisies. Because many people came to see his parents during this period, although he could see purple daisies every time, he didn''t think much. But now Is it an obvious indication or a coincidence? Thinking, Mo Shaochen looked at Ye Chenyu''s line of sight and narrowed slightly. "OK." Ye Chenyu didn''t shy away. "From the beginning of work, I will send a bunch every year." Ye Chenyu''s words are full of deep meaning. Before he got his salary, it can be said that he was funded by Beichen So every time he came, he just came to see his father. After work, he began to use his own money to buy a bunch of flowers for his father Ye Chenyu looked slightly down at the hand held by Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue, with a light smile in his mouth: "bring Xiao Yue to see your parents?!" The joking words are ye Chenyu''s customary attitude. However, Mo Shaochen''s first reaction was that ye Chenyu was changing the topic. And also successfully transferred Li Xiaoyue''s thoughts. "Yes." Mo Shaochen answered and released Li Xiaoyue''s hand. He stepped forward and said in a voice that only two people could hear clearly, "you seem to owe me a serious explanation." Ye Chenyu''s mouth was full of evil laughter. His sight was getting deeper, but he didn''t speak. Mo Shaochen opened some distance. In his pupils, he exuded the calmness and examination of lawyers alone, as well as insight into people''s hearts! "Think about it..." Ye Chenyu smiled foolishly. "If you have to be on duty, I won''t bother you to see your parents." After the words fell, ye Chenyu took a deep look at Mo Shaochen, his sight just crossed Li Xiaoyue, and then turned around. He copied his pockets with both hands and walked casually to lazily, leaving the sight of Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue Standing on the steps leading to the cemetery gate, ye Chenyu looked down. "Dad, if today''s unexpected meeting is doomed to reveal the secret, can you give me a chance?" Ye Chenyu''s voice was gentle, as if the wind dispersed. "Even if you don''t accept..." Ye Chenyu''s voice was depressed under sadness. "But at least, you won''t be jealous when you meet!" ¡­¡­ Spencer noble school. The graduation ceremony of the kindergarten is about to be held. As every child here is the favorite of heaven, there are not many families who can really come at such a moment. "Chen Shao, madam Shao?!" Susan was obviously surprised when she saw Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, "when did you come back?" "Morning!" Jane Mo smiled and looked around, "why didn''t you see Xiao Jing?" "I''ve gone to deal with the electronic technology city. I may not be able to come back..." Susan looked at the time. "But last night, I said I''d try my best." With that, she raised her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, "if Xiao Jie knew that Chen Shao and his wife came back quietly, she would be very happy." "Didn''t you say that the graduation ceremony would be arranged next week?" Gu Beichen glanced at the banner held by the school and asked. "It seems that an activity has hit the time, so it''s advanced to this week." Gu Beichen didn''t ask any more. He just looked at the crowded crowd. After the eagle eyes passed indifferently... He listened to Susan. "Adrian, Mr. Su and Mrs. Su are here... Mo Shao and Miss Li are also here." Gu Beichen and Jian Mo looked back and saw Su Anyuan and others coming. Before they could say hello, Chu Zixiao arrived with Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi. "It is estimated that Xiaojie is the most visited by parents." Susan teased with a smile and raised her eyebrows. Everyone said hello. Su Junli, cen Lanxi and others were surprised. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo came back. After a while of greeting, Lu Hanyu suddenly looked at Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue. "I just saw that you came together?" As a passer-by, Lu Hanyu obviously asked the deep meaning of this question. Suddenly, everyone''s eyes fell on Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue. Jian Mo and Gu Beichen smiled at each other and then winked at Li Xiaoyue. In due time, I saw Mo Shaochen looking at Cen Lanxi "Aunt, uncle!" Mo Shaochen held Li Xiaoyue''s hand, "she is Li Xiaoyue, my wife..." Chapter 1029 Mo Shaochen''s words fell. Except Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, who already knew the matter, everyone else was surprised to varying degrees. "What are you talking about?" CEN Lanxi twisted her eyebrows. Li Xiaoyue began to get nervous. Mo Shaochen''s parents are gone. He grew up taking care of his family. CEN Lanxi is just like her mother. Jane Mo''s marriage to Gu Beichen has been so hindered. I''m afraid Cen Lanxi knows something about her Thinking of this, Li Xiaoyue became more and more nervous and always felt that he would be opposed. The atmosphere was suddenly dignified, and everyone didn''t speak. Mo Shaochen just pulled Li Xiaoyue''s hand and gently rubbed the back of her hand with his finger to reassure her. Chu Zixiao stood there with his hands copying his pockets, some pondering the smile Because of his relationship with Jian Mo, Li Xiaoyue had an unspeakable admiration for Mo Shaochen at school. He was clear. Later, he was forced, aborted, and then went to prison He can be said to be the most clear one among the outsiders. And grandma''s temper he also knows that it is difficult in principle to let Grandma agree with Li Xiaoyue! CEN Lanxi''s eyes were shining with the sharpness of her elders. Several times... She almost couldn''t help but want to retort. However, they all held back. After Gu Beichen and Jian Mo''s life and death, cen Lanxi has lost his previous sharpness to some extent Lu Hanzhen wanted to break the embarrassment under such dignity, but she had to give up because she was an outsider. "Is this your choice?" CEN Lanxi endured for a long time and spoke in the end. "Yes!" Mo Shaochen''s voice was calm but firm. CEN Lanxi looked at Li Xiaoyue and saw that her mouth was almost in a straight line because she was nervous. Jian Mo is also nervous. Xiao Yue already has low self-esteem towards Mo Shaochen. If Cen Lanxi doesn''t agree CEN Lanxi looked at Mo Shaochen and said, "if this is your choice, I have nothing to object to." Everyone looked at Cen Lanxi in varying degrees of surprise, as if they were surprised that she didn''t object at all. "Your parents left early, from small to large, you are also independent and have your own ideas..." Cen Lanxi looked at Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, "you are not children anymore. You think it''s the life you want." "Thank you, aunt." Mo Shaochen''s mouth overflowed with a smile. It was obviously useless to persuade Cen Lanxi. Li Xiaoyue''s nose was sour, the corners of his mouth smiled, his eyes were red and said, "thank you, aunt and uncle!" "Yes, children and grandchildren have their own blessings..." Lu Hanyu smiled at the right time. "In laws, let''s go and see how Xiaojie is preparing? I heard that he wants to speak as a student representative." "OK, together..." Cen Lanxi nodded and said to Gu Beichen and Mo Shaochen, "go back to the manor for dinner in the evening... Well, take your wife with you!" "OK." Gu Beichen answered. The family here was successful, but Su Anyuan sighed. "Look, others are anxious to find a wife. When are you going to put it down?" Su Anyuan said in a voice that only he and Su Junli could hear. Su Junli just smiled softly, "when fate comes..." "..." Su Anyuan took a breath from the corner of his mouth and didn''t bother to talk to Su Junli. He went to see Jian Jie first with Lu Hanzhen, Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi. Su Junli looked at his parents, on and off for a lifetime He complained about his father, but now he is happy to see that his mother and father can go hand in hand to finish the last road of life. "In the future, it''s not just a best friend," Jane Mo said jokingly, holding Li Xiaoyue''s hand. "Hey, you have to call me cousin!" "Yes..." Li Xiaoyue raised her eyebrows. "Cousin... OK?!" Suddenly, the two women looked at each other and smiled. Many things, many words... Everything is in silence. "Do you want to go backstage first?" Su Junli asked. "No," said Jian Mo, encircling Li Xiaoyue''s arm. "I was wondering if I would be nervous and excited when the milk bag saw that ah Chen and I were at the bottom... I forgot what to say." "Are you sure this will happen to Xiao Jie?" Su Junli can''t laugh or cry. "I won''t be able to see..." Jian Mo skimmed his mouth and obviously tasted something. "But I can see ah Chen, that may be." Su Junli nodded approvingly. Everyone talked and laughed and went to the auditorium. Because of their identity, the school arranged the best position for everyone. The parents of the children in the auditorium arrived one after another. By the time it officially started, the auditorium was already full. Because it is an aristocratic school, even if it is the graduation ceremony of kindergarten, it is similar. First, after the school boasted for a while, the host said, "next, let''s invite the graduating class Gu Yan to speak on behalf of the students." At the same time of applause, Jian Jie came out wearing a fitting blue short sleeved shirt and black shorts. It''s the same school uniform, but Jian Jie wears a little adult momentum. Jane Jie walked to the round platform behind the microphone and bowed to the audience first Because of this, he saw Gu Beichen and Jian mo. Bright eyes, suddenly across the surprise under surprise. Even the act of bowing stopped for a few seconds because of this unexpected surprise "See, see..." Jane Mo pulled Gu Beichen''s sleeve. "How surprised the milk bag saw me." Gu Beichen''s thin lips gently raised an arc, and faintly answered, "HMM." Jian Mo''s heart is almost sweet. Looking at Jian Jie''s sight, it is full of a mother''s joy for her child Jane Jie''s surprise was only temporary. He stood up straight and began to speak. The little guy had a speech in his hand, but from beginning to end, he said it with both voice and emotion without looking at it. Thunderous applause rang out again after Jian Jie''s speech, and everyone sighed Gu Beichen, a son, is afraid to get more involved than him when he grows up! After the graduates finished speaking, there were some programs of children''s report. The final finale is Jian Jie''s Piano Solo "Before listening to the milk bag, I agreed to play the program with you one by one at the graduation ceremony..." Jane Mo suddenly sighed. Ning Ze doesn''t know what''s going on?! Gu Beichen took a deep look at her, sighed and said slowly, "there will always be a chance in the future." Jane Mo pulled the corners of her mouth and smiled. Looking at Jane Jie''s line of sight, she became more and more loving The graduation ceremony ended with Jane Jie''s piano solo. Everyone began to take photos one after another, and Jian Jie, the star of the stars and the moon, was just tired of taking pictures with Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, and was asked by many young girls in the class Jian Jie is a gentleman. Apart from being disgusted with Jian Mo, it can be said that he is a female killer from childhood to old. "It seems that you can''t finish it for a while..." Mo Shaochen went to Gu Beichen. "Go there and have a chat?" Gu Beichen glanced at him and nodded. "Your man feels something wrong..." Jian Mo encircles Li Xiaoyue''s arm, looks at the back of Gu Beichen and Mo Shaochen and asks, "what''s the situation?" "We went to elder martial brother''s parents today..." Li Xiaoyue said. "Huh?" Jian Mo looked back and said, "see your parents?!" Li Xiaoyue nodded. "Well..." she paused. "Then, I met Ye Chenyu there." "Ah?!" Jane Mo was surprised, "how could he be there?" "More than that..." Li Xiaoyue hesitated and talked about the party. "Tut Tut, besides his mother, ye Chenyu''s important person is Shaochen..." Jian Mo''s eyes crossed cunningly, "it''s really thought-provoking!" ¡­¡­ Mo Shaochen and Gu Beichen went to a bench in the shade and sat down. Mo Shaochen put his arms on his legs and leaned forward with his hands crossed "What''s up?" Gu Beichen overlapped his slender legs lazily. Mo Shaochen''s eyes fell in front and looked at the floating willow twigs. His eyes gradually deepened After a while, he slowly said, "Beichen, is Ye Chenyu my father''s child?" Then he turned his head slightly and looked at Gu Beichen quietly, waiting for his answer! Chapter 1030 Gu Beichen glanced at Mo Shaochen, then converged and fell in front J came from Luoda after class and was handing a gift to Jane Jie. The little guy was full of expectation, but he had a proud and disdainful face. Well, this awkward character... Why do you think there is a bit of his shadow?! "Beichen?!" Mo Shaochen slightly frowned and shouted, and looked at Jian Jie along his line of sight. He is here anxiously waiting for the answer. Beichen is good. He has only his son in his eyes What, show off you have a son? He''ll have it sooner or later, okay?! Gu Beichen converged his sight, and the eagle''s eyes fell lightly on Mo Shaochen''s face, which was a little angry. The edge of his thin lips raised a faint radian. "What do you want me to say?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer the question. Mo Shaochen frowned again. The position of his heart was inexplicably tense and dignified. He is a lawyer. He has sharp eloquence, calm thoughts and a calm mind. These are often very important factors for him to win the lawsuit in court. But these are useless in front of Beichen After the storm, Gu Beichen can''t guess his current emotions and thoughts except facing Jian mo "Or say..." Gu Beichen Mo Tong asked gradually, "why do you have such an idea?" Mo Shaochen got up and leaned against his seat, "I feel." "Huh?" Gu Beichen is light. "Before, I thought you had a good relationship with an undercover agent, some of which were not in line with..." Mo Shaochen looked ahead. "Later, I thought, you are worth paying, and there will be no level limit at all." Gu Beichen''s thin lips always wore a shallow smile, listened quietly and didn''t speak. "Later, I went to England," Mo Shaochen''s voice was a little far-reaching, as if in memory. "On the surface, he was helping Xiao Yue, but many times, as long as I think about it, he only paid more and more attention to me..." Gu Beichen glanced at Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen also looked at Gu Beichen at the right time. "Moreover, I heard... Ye Chenyu didn''t plan to take the protection team before. Later, he agreed after hearing the members of the lawyer group." Gu Beichen''s thin lips hooked up and smiled as if there was nothing. "At that time, I''m afraid..." Mo Shaochen said meaningfully, "he hasn''t known Xiao Yue yet?!" "Maybe..." Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows and said ambiguously. Mo Shaochen took back his sight, "in fact, I just doubt these." "Yes." "But people are like this. If they doubt, they will naturally pay attention to some details..." Mo Shaochen''s voice looked at it from a distance. "Besides, grasping the details is my professional instinct." Gu Beichen listened to Mo Shaochen''s quiet speaking process until the game of truth and adventure. He knew that more than 50% of Shaochen had thought of it No one is born to be good to others. A revolutionary friendship will not be placed in an important position other than mother. In addition, I met Ye Chenyu in the cemetery this morning. Many things are self-evident "In fact, I''m more curious..." Gu Beichen gently opened his thin lips and said, "why do you think that Chenyu is my uncle''s child?" Deep in Mo Shaochen''s eyes, a touch of emotion suddenly crossed It seems to be pain and forbearance. Mo Shaochen looked ahead and was afraid to be seen by Gu Beichen. Although, he thinks this behavior is how naive. "Dad, there are women outside. In fact, I knew it when I was very young..." Mo Shaochen spoke slowly after a long time. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Obviously, he was surprised. Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes, "just, it didn''t take long for my father and mother to have an accident. I didn''t think much about it..." Later, naturally, I didn''t think about it. But combined with Ye Chenyu, some things that he didn''t think deeply naturally flooded his thoughts. "What if Chenyu is really my uncle''s child?" Gu Beichen asked faintly. Mo Shaochen was silent again The atmosphere was once dignified. Gu Beichen didn''t urge Mo Shaochen to answer, but his eyes fell on Jian Jie and j, as if he didn''t care about the answer at all. "That''s nice..." I don''t know how long it took Mo Shaochen to spit out two words slowly. Gu Beichen looked at Mo Shaochen. He was a little confused about the meaning of these two words. It''s nice to have such a family Or is there a woman outside my little uncle, "nice"?! It''s good in two meanings, one full of expectation and the other full of ridicule "Beichen, I want to meet Ye Chenyu''s mother..." Mo Shaochen looked at Gu Beichen and said. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "and then?" "They know my existence, and now I know their existence..." Mo Shaochen''s voice is still calm. "My father is gone, I think I should solve it, shouldn''t I?" Gu Beichen took back his sight and nodded, "indeed." Then he put down his overlapping legs and got up "I''ll arrange it." Gu Beichen said, glancing down at Mo Shaochen, raised his feet and walked to Jian Jie. ¡­¡­ "Hey? Joe, what happened to Ye today?" Ye Rui shook his head and shrugged at the other members of the training team "It is estimated that there is too much strength and there is no place to use!" As soon as the team member heard this, "ha ha" twice, "how do I feel that team Ye is going to compete with Chen Ju?" "Why?" Qiao Rui looks at the players curiously. The players looked stunned, "Joe, don''t you know?" Qiao Rui''s eyebrows were frowned and his face was obviously confused. "You certainly didn''t see the intranet last night..." the team member said, "it seems that the criminal police team is practicing more these days, and many people have been abused by Chen Bureau." "What does this have to do with our SWAT team?" Qiao Rui frowned. "Oh, in fact, there is no..." the team member said, "but there will be a large-scale competition in the prisoner field club tomorrow. I heard that Chen Bureau has shares and will pass." "And then?" Qiao Rui still doesn''t know what this has to do with Ye Chenyu. The player grinned. "I heard that team Ye was a member of that club... He only knew it after signing up a few days ago." "..." Qiao Rui''s eyes lit up and then looked contemptuous. "It can all be related to you. Why don''t you go to be a paparazzi The player took a smoke from the corner of his mouth and was wronged for a moment. Isn''t everyone curious about the "confrontation" between Ye team and Chen bureau?! How does it feel that he is the only gossip Shit, men are really not suitable for gossip, especially cold guys like them. However, the team members haven''t comforted themselves yet, so ye Chenyu came over. Qiao Rui''s words made him feel that a flash of lightning came down in the sky "Brother Yu, there is a field club with activities tomorrow. Are you interested in going there?" Chapter 1031 Ye Chenyu put his hands in his combat trouser pocket and asked casually, "criminal?" "Yes, it''s the field Club..." Qiao Rui said with a serious face. "I saw the news published on the Internet in the morning and it''s a vacation tomorrow, so I want to go and have a look." "Not enough practice in the team?" Ye Chenyu asked with a smile. "There are no women. For a single dog like me," Qiao Rui shrugged, "I can only find some games..." "Let''s go together tomorrow. I happen to have a team to play." When ye Chenyu finished, he walked to the place where the water was discharged. Qiao Rui raised his eyebrows and said, "OK, I''ll wait for your call tomorrow." "Tut tut..." the former gossip player walked up to Qiao Rui and gave him a thumbs up directly. "Team Qiao, my worship for you can''t be expressed in words." "Must!" Qiao Rui has a proud face. The team members shook their heads and decided to go to a round of training to calm their surging emotions. The next day, the weather that had been gloomy for a day finally began to drizzle in the early morning. Not big, even poetic. Early in the morning, the CS Club of the criminal field battle began to check the safety performance of the final props nervously in the drizzle. "This weather is really suitable." "If I say, it should be bigger today..." "That''s not easy to fight?!" "Today, there are several teams, many of them are professional. It''s just fun and exciting because of the heavy rain." "Yes!" "Hey, is sister Chen coming today?" "Well, I also heard from the boss. Today, sister Yu of team f brought it by herself." "That''s interesting. Brother Yu also came here this morning and brought team d himself." "Two strong men and two strong teams... Tut Tut, why do I suddenly want to see a rainstorm?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The staff of the field Club chatted excitedly, and the people participating in today''s activity were coming. Everyone changed their clothes and didn''t know who was the leader of the opponent team, which also increased the interest of players. "There are two great teams today. I especially recommend..." Meng Yiyan, the boss of the prisoner''s club, looked at Chen Chen, who was tying his boots and shoelaces. "Tell me about you. It''s not easy to take a vacation. If you don''t accompany your uncle and them, you have to come to me." Chen Yu didn''t speak, but just got up and tied his long curly hair neatly into an unobstructed hairstyle. "I guess my uncle will have to call and scold me at night..." Meng Yiyan sighed, "tell me about you, Mingming..." "Shut up!" Chen Yu was tired of listening and said coldly. Meng Yiyan choked on half of his words and almost didn''t choke by himself. "Go ahead, don''t say..." Meng Yiyan is also used to Chen Yu''s temper. "Just be happy." Chen Yu took his hat and walked out without looking at Meng Yiyan Meng Yiyan sighed again, followed by some evil hands, "everyone will play hot pot here in the evening. If you stay, I''ll send someone to prepare some seafood." "Yes." At the same time that Chen Ying answered, the man had left the dressing room. The rain outside is a little heavy, and I don''t know if it should be in the mind of the club staff. "Eh, isn''t that Chen Ju?" Qiao Rui stopped loading the paintball and motioned to Ye Chenyu next to him. Ye Chenyu frowned slightly and looked along his line of sight. Sure enough, he saw Chen Yu. "Unexpectedly, Chen Ju also came..." Qiao Rui said knowingly. Ye Chenyu took back his sight and pinned the laser pistol into the holster. "It''s interesting to be a strong opponent." Qiao Rui grinned, "brother Yu, do you know what I like most about you?" "Confidence!" "No, fart..." Qiao Rui said, and then laughed. Suddenly, attracted the attention of the whole outfit. Of course, Chen also looked over "Well, that''s one of your strong opponents today..." Meng Yiyan picked his chin. Chen Yu''s enchanting Phoenix eyes crossed a completely different emotion, then converged, didn''t speak, and walked coldly and proudly towards his team. Meng Yiyan glanced. "Hey, he''s really powerful... Don''t look back and blame me for not reminding you!" "A strong opponent is interesting." Chen Yu said without looking back. Meng Yi smiled, "sister Yu, I like your confidence..." The rain did not quench the enthusiasm of the people, but in this weather, it made the teams who like real CS burn their blood one after another. First, after Meng Yiyan said the competition rules, the teams entered the competition area one after another. According to the competition system, those who started the scuffle first eliminated a group of people Here, under the rain, everyone is sprinkling their energy with warm blood. In the coffee shop of flower dance, however, melodious piano music is filled in rainy days, showing the romance of petty bourgeoisie. Naturally, in addition to romance, there is also a touch of sadness Ye Chen told her mother that she was nervous to see her at night. When she was a little nervous, she almost didn''t go to bed. This morning is even more melancholy. I don''t know what to wear to see Shaochen. She is an elder, but... It seems that Shaochen is a little embarrassed. Piano music is soft and soothing. However, mother Ye is more and more nervous because she is sitting opposite Mo Shaochen. At the right time, the waiter brought coffee and cakes "Listen to Beichen. You prefer this one." Mo Shaochen pushed a black forest cake in front of mother Ye. Mother Ye looked at the small piece of cake. Inexplicably, her nose was sour, "thank you." Mo Shaochen looked at mother Ye quietly. Different from the evil charm of Ye Chenyu, the person in front of him was full of a Book aroma, full of elegance and tranquility. Silence. Mother Ye hesitated to wait for Mo Shaochen to say something, but Mo Shaochen forgot what to say and just quietly looked at the woman who had passed half a hundred in front of her. "Shaochen..." After a while, mother Ye couldn''t stand the atmosphere and shouted tentatively. Mo Shaochen narrowed his eyes. "I''m sorry," he said apologetically. "I just feel that Chen Yu is so evil, and his mother is as elegant as orchid." Mother Ye quietly looked at Mo Shaochen and didn''t expect him to say so. "Chenyu came from Ono, and then for some time I also..." mother Ye paused, and the corners of her mouth were a little astringent. "I was also careless about him. Fortunately, Chenyu didn''t go astray because of Beichen''s care." Mo Shaochen smiled faintly at the corners of his mouth and could hardly see clearly, "you taught him very well..." Mother Ye was a little embarrassed. "I didn''t complain about what had happened or hate," Mo Shaochen said in a quiet voice. "It''s rare." "And you?" Mother Ye squeezed her hand, endured her inner excitement and fear, and asked, "do you have resentment?" Chapter 1032 "I don''t blame you for what you think of me, but..." mother Ye''s voice was cramped and nervous with a trace of sadness. "Shaochen, can you not blame Chenyu?" Mother Ye lowered her eyes and wanted to hide her sadness. "He is innocent... After all, he has no choice." Mo Shaochen didn''t speak, just looked at mother Ye. Mother Ye waited. As the hard time went by, she became more and more sad, "Shaochen..." She raised her eyes and wanted to say something, but she was interrupted by Mo Shaochen. "How can you blame him?" Mo Shaochen said softly, "what''s my reason to blame such a good relative?" Mother Ye didn''t react for a moment. She just opened her mouth slightly and looked at Mo Shaochen. For a long time, she didn''t know how to react. "We are all adults," Mo Shaochen said slowly. "We have long lost the impulse and irrationality of the green period." Mother Ye suddenly misted the bottom of her eyes, and the corners of her mouth were uncontrollable. She trembled with excitement. Mo Shaochen looked at mother ye, his voice throbbing under the far-reaching package, and slowly opened his mouth: "I''m very happy, and my family..." "That''s how to say..." mother Ye hesitated and asked, "you accept Chenyu, don''t you?" Mo Shaochen didn''t answer directly, but his hand fell on mother Ye''s hand, which was suddenly placed on the table from her leg because of excitement. "Why don''t I accept my brother who is so considerate of me and puts me in such a heavy position?" Mo Shaochen asked back. At the same time, he looked at mother ye with a smile and said, "we are a family, aren''t we?" Mother Ye feels that she is very impolite today. Mo Shaochen''s words made her unable to respond several times "Shaochen, do you mean..." mother Ye''s voice has trembled with excitement and doubt, and she doesn''t know how to speak. Mo Shaochen smiled, very warm smile, shallow, but with warmth. "I, Chenyu... And you," Mo Shaochen''s smile deepened, "it''s a family, isn''t it?" Tears finally burst out of my eyes uncontrollably. Mother Ye has neglected that this is a public place, and even her cultivation does not allow her to be so rude. But what should I do? She was deeply moved by such a good child in front of her. "Shaochen, we are a family..." mother Ye''s voice trembled with excitement, "... Really?!" Mo Shaochen smiled and nodded with firmness in his eyes. Mother Ye raised her other hand, covered her mouth and began to sob gently. It was tears of joy. She seemed to feel that the secret she had carried for so many years had been vented at once. What she and Chenyu have been worried about is so ridiculous at this moment "Thank you, Shaochen!" Mother Ye has tears in her eyes, but the corners of her mouth have been raised. Mo Shaochen didn''t say anything more, but held mother Ye''s hand tightly. ¡­¡­ It''s raining hard outside. The weather is more gloomy, as if to press down "Tut Tut, it''s really exciting to play a real-life match in this weather." The staff of the criminal said that they were not afraid of big things. Those who can finish real CS like to seek stimulation. Besides, it''s even more exciting to join some people with strong abilities in this field. "Look at the monitoring of various regions, don''t be surprised..." Meng Yiyan explained. "Yes, boss." Meng Yiyan went outside. Under the shed, he could hear the sound of "Ping Ping" of the heavy rain. "You seem a little worried?" Qiao Rui leaned on the pole and looked at Meng Yiyan with a frown. "Don''t you worry?" Meng Yiyan looks sideways at Qiao Rui. Because the personnel of the match are determined in advance, he can only be used as a backup when he comes here today. No one in group D quit today, and Qiao Rui can only wait and see. Qiao Rui shook his head. "Brother Yu has been playing with you for so long. You should know his ability." "I''m not worried about one person..." Meng Yiyan looked at the weather. "Such weather is exciting, but there are hidden dangers in safety." Qiao Rui smiled, nodded approvingly, and then asked, "when I saw Chen Ju with you at that time, you were very familiar?" After he asked, he seemed to murmur, "Chen Ju just returned home. He had been abroad before." "Sister Yu?" Meng Yiyan said, "our two families are world friends. My mother and her mother are best friends... Here are your shares in Chen Ju." "Oh... So?!" Qiao Rui looks clear. But in my heart, I began to play Xiaojiu. After a long time, this man is still a childhood sweetheart of Chen bureau?! Qiao Rui is chatting with Meng Yiyan while looking at the monitor under the shed. After two hours of fighting, it has reached a stalemate. There are only four teams left, and the most preserved are team D led by Ye Chenyu and team f led by Chen. Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu also seem to have a tacit understanding. Both sides intend to eliminate the other two pairs first, and then compete in the end The time passed under the increasingly heavy rain. It was another hour after ye Chenyu and Chen Yu solved the other two teams. "It''s wonderful..." Qiao Rui was a little excited and felt his blood boiling. The eliminated team members changed their clothes one by one and gathered together. While discussing the abilities of team D and team F, I watched the situation from the monitor However, we gradually feel that something is wrong. "Eh, why didn''t the two captains appear in the surveillance for half a day?" It was questioned. Meng Yiyan and Qiao Rui look at each other and have only one idea. The duel between the two powers has become stronger. As they thought, Chen Yu and ye Chenyu are more energetic One of them has rich training and the other has strong practical experience. Both of them cleverly avoided the monitoring and planned to attack each other The rain is getting heavier and heavier. The sound of the rain is the best trace coverage and cover. Ye Chenyu made a gesture towards his staff, and the person he saw nodded at him Ye Chenyu smiled at the bottom of his eyes and then changed his gestures. This side is being arranged nervously, but Chen Yu doesn''t stop there. "Captain, are you sure?" A team member said, "Ye Chenyu, we have met once in the war before. He is very cunning." Chen Yu''s face was expressionless, "according to what I said..." "Good!" Everyone answered. Although we have doubts about Chen''s ability for just three hours, we still have great confidence in him. The two sides have been at loggerheads, and it seems that their breath is frozen under the heavy rain. Ye Chenyu suddenly made a gesture, and everyone immediately began to act Chapter 1033 Both sides are acting almost simultaneously, just as Chen Yu and ye Chenyu can see each other. Because of the large field area, there are only two team members left now. It can be said that hiding or pursuing has both advantages and disadvantages The nervous people here held their breath, and the melon eating people who watched also raised their hearts one by one, as if they were still in the field area. "War" is imminent. Under the rainstorm, people who were hit by laser guns and triggered the signal bomb "died"! With the increasingly tense atmosphere, everyone followed with a heart "Do you want to bet? Will team D win or team f win in the end?" It was proposed. "According to what?" "Captain survival or overall survival?" "Of course, according to the whole..." someone immediately said, "this shows the overall tactical problem." "I love my sister!" Meng Yiyan was the first to speak. Qiao Rui doesn''t want to fall behind, "I''m brother Yu!" Suddenly, everyone took the captain as a group and began to bet "The winner will pay for the hot pot ingredients at the end of the competition," someone suggested. "It''s the winner''s treat and the loser''s pay!" Suddenly, everyone agreed. The people waiting were excited one by one, and the atmosphere in the field area was indeed more and more dignified. Another hour has passed since the battle, but there are only small casualties on both sides "Brother Yu, there is one hour left, but the game is about to end." Someone came to Ye Chenyu and said. Ye Chenyu looked at the time, "according to the tactics, force them to a dead corner..." "Good!" The man answered, and after the cat waist returned to his position, he began to make gestures to his team members. This field battle has eliminated some high-end combat equipment. Everyone can only start from the original The atmosphere escalated again, and everyone''s breathing became heavy and rapid under the heavy rain. Ye Chenyu''s people have basically led Chen Yu''s people to a dead corner according to his deployment Ye Chenyu''s mouth overflowed with a spooky smile, threw the impact gun behind him and pulled out the pistol. The steps are light and steady. The sharp sight is like a falcon. As long as the prey appears, it can be captured in an instant. Suddenly When the sound of "BIU" came, I heard the sound of "Yila". Then, at the same time, a yellow smoke rose. It all happened in an instant. Ye Chenyu sneered. After biting his teeth and spilling a word of "rely", he put one hand on his waist and some didn''t figure it out. He capsized in the gutter?! When people in team D saw yellow smoke rising, their first reaction was to know that someone in their team was "killed in battle" But none of them thought it was Ye Chenyu! "I went..." Joe Rui directly stood up from the chair. "Yu brother killed this, and it was too suck!" "Now the leader of team D is over. He has lost his leader. It seems that he can only be hanged and beaten by team f..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The onlookers talked in succession. Ye Chenyu simply leaned on the oil bucket on one side, looked coldly, and even looked at Chen Yu with a proud glance and smiled This woman, what the hell is this tactic?! Just to kill him?! Thinking, ye Chenyu took off the special equipment mirror and wiped the rain on his face. "Brother Yu, what''s the situation..." someone rubbed over. Ye Chenyu shrugged, "I''m a dead man!" "..." the man twitched at the corners of his mouth and nodded to show that he understood. Immediately, I saw that after the man returned, he began to sign with everyone to indicate that he took over the team leader position Ye Chenyu still stood in place and called it "the dead can''t move". He just watched the two sides fight Suddenly, accidents always happen at such a critical moment, which makes people unprepared. "Be careful!" Ye Chenyu made a quick noise. But it''s too late I saw a member of team f slip under his feet and suddenly slide down the big slope with the cordon pulled aside Sooner or later, just as ye Chenyu made a sound, Chen Fei rushed forward and grabbed the player''s arm. However, because of the downward trend, she only paused, and the two began to slide down at the same time Everyone was stunned at this moment. Forgetting the battle, the onlookers were stunned... I don''t know how the battle circle came to the cordon. The cry of "ah ah" seeps under the heavy rain. Chen Shu''s eyes were cold. He didn''t grasp the other hand of the team member''s hand, pulled out the pistol on his leg, and with all his strength, he ruthlessly inserted it into the soil. However, because there was grass on it, she didn''t insert it very deep. But also because of her action, it slightly stopped the downward trend. In a few seconds Just as ye Chenyu strode over, Chen Yu and his team members began to slide again. Everyone doesn''t know how to react. Meng Yiyan and Qiao Rui have rushed to the place of the past. However, because of the long distance, it doesn''t help at all. And when the team members and Chen Yu were about to slide down the big slope and fall into the thorny ditch Chen Yu only felt that his ankle was caught by someone. Then he slipped twice and stopped the momentum. So at this moment, people forget to breathe. The player''s face was white, but Chen looked back calmly Ye Chenyu didn''t know where the stick came from. He ruthlessly inserted it into the soil blocked by a stone, while the other hand grabbed Chen Yu''s ankle. Well, it''s the same place I caught in the wine cellar last time! "You''ve been killed..." Chen said subconsciously. Ye Chenyu couldn''t laugh or cry. "If I really died in battle, you and him will die at this time." Chen Yu felt a strange emotion at the bottom of his eyes and became aware of how ridiculous his words were. The rescuers came quickly and three people were saved. However, the team members who fell before were still in shock, and ye Chenyu had a small degree of scratch. Chen Yu looks a little more serious. In the end, he is thin and tender. Even his combat clothes can''t stop the traces of friction. "Hissing..." All of a sudden, Chen Yu made an uncontrolled backward suction. "How about sister Yu?" Meng Yiyan looked worried. Chen Chen secretly gritted his teeth, "I''m fine." Ye Chenyu took a cold look at Chen Chen, suddenly came forward, regardless of other people''s sight, and picked her up "Ow..." As soon as they saw it, they immediately looked at Ye Chenyu with a gossip face and an ambiguous face. Meng Yiyan frowned. Chen Yu''s first reaction was to attack Ye Chenyu, "what are you doing?!" On one side of Ye Chenyu''s face, after Chen Yu''s attack, Leng Sheng said in a voice that only she could hear: "if you don''t want others to see that you are actually trying to be brave, be honest with me!" Chapter 1034 Chen Yu was surprised that his body, which was still trying to struggle, had gradually stopped moving. Meng Yiyan frowned more tightly. He knows Chen Yu''s temperament and understands that she just said she was okay. In fact, she was trying to be brave From small to large, when she was so brave, anyone who exposed her could be ignored by her for a long time. Gradually, everyone knows Chen''s temper. At this time, most of them can only endure But ye Chenyu''s action is obviously "controlling violence with violence"! And it seems to be very effective They went back to the field club. Because of the accident, the final victory was uncertain. However, fortunately, the accident is dangerous. To play such a game, we all have some psychological preparation It''s good that people are safe, and they don''t have too much fear. The outside is talking about how to decide whether to win or lose today. The captain of team D was killed, but there are more deaths in team F. For a time, we couldn''t argue At the moment, the atmosphere in the rest room is not as relaxed as that outside, especially weird. The doctor who came here before was examining the injured member of team F. Meng Yiyan simply went to another doctor of the club, and Qiao Rui followed him to help In the lounge, there were only Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu waiting. "It should be misplaced..." Ye Chenyu said, looking up at Chen Yu, who endured the pain but stubbornly didn''t want to show, "Hey, why did you just kill me?" "You''re an opponent. It''s not normal to kill you?" Chen Yu sneered, "moreover, catch the thief first and catch the king!" "Oh, I thought it was the day I saw your pants torn. You took revenge!" "Ye Chenyu, you..." when Chen Yu heard this, his face turned uncontrollably red. However, because of his stubbornness, he stared at him, looking a little funny. Ye Chenyu looked like a fool, but da Zhang didn''t leave the place where Chen Yu''s bones were misplaced "By the way, are you apologizing to me when you give me that ointment?" "The ghost apologized to you..." Chen Chen gritted his teeth. His thoughts had been led to the wine cellar that day by Ye Chenyu. He was angry and brain. "Ye Chenyu, if you dare to mention the wine cellar again, don''t blame me for being rude to you..." Ye Chenyu picked his eyebrow and asked with a smile, "Why are you rude to me?" "You can try... Ah!" With the sound of bone touching, Chen Yu suddenly shouted The anger that had become angry from shame was also forgotten because of this scream. "All right!" Ye Chenyu got up, "try it yourself." Chen Yu''s face is a little changeable. She looks up and stares at Ye Chenyu Ye Chenyu suddenly leaned over and put one hand on the back of the chair. While his eyes were evil, his face slowly approached Chen Yu. "It''s just to divert your attention. Why do you make it seem like I''m trying to force you?!" The ruffian evil words made Chen Shu''s face blush. She raised her hand angrily and fell down with a "dirty" sound, but her wrist was caught. Suddenly I don''t know whether it''s inertia or because of the support point, Chen''s body suddenly tilted Instinctively, ye Chenyu grabbed Chen Yu''s wrist and pulled back her body that was about to fall. But because his strength was not stable, when Chen was pulled back, he ran straight into Ye Chenyu''s chest. The sound of "Oh" came. When Chen Yu didn''t exert himself at all, he had to fall to one side because of his elasticity Ye Chenyu hurriedly grabbed Chen Yu with his other hand, stepped down under his feet, and stopped the movements of both of them. The door of the lounge was suddenly opened Qiao Rui and Meng Yiyan came in with the club doctor and some medical tools. The three people don''t know what happened. Anyway, what they see at the moment is Ye Chenyu held Chen Yu tightly and hugged her! Chen Chen, with a "little woman coquettish" attitude, hid in Ye Chenyu''s arms. Of course, the situation of Chen Yu was imagined by Qiao Rui The atmosphere is a little weird, even with embarrassment under ambiguity. Meng Yiyan frowned slightly, but Qiao Rui held the medical box and looked like watching a good play. Chen Yu didn''t know that he was "surrounded" at the moment, but he was "dizzy" by the sudden situation. When I got back to my mind, I pushed aside Ye Chenyu holding her and said with gnashing teeth, "Ye Chenyu, you..." Speaking in general, Chen Yu suddenly stopped. Then he looked at Meng Yiyan, who was still standing at the door of the lounge. Suddenly, the corners of his mouth pulled out uncontrollably. "Brother Yu, Chen Ju..." Qiao Rui grinned and said, "well, I didn''t see anything just now. Well, it seems that I was blinded by eye excrement." "..." even though Chen Yu was usually strong, he blushed uncontrollably at this moment. "Just now, it''s just that she''s going to fall. I helped her..." Ye Chenyu slowly opened his mouth, looking like you believe it or not. Chen Yu frowned and looked at Ye Chenyu with a warning. Although he was telling the truth, his words were not like an explanation at all, but rather a cover up. "What brother Yu explains, we naturally believe..." Qiao Rui came in and vaguely met Ye Chenyu, and his chin was picked in the direction of Chen Yu. Because of Qiao Rui''s words, the atmosphere in the lounge suddenly became unclear. Chen Shen''s face sank, but he didn''t say anything. Naturally, ye Chenyu didn''t explain any more. Meng Yiyan looked at Chen Yu and ye Chenyu, and then said to the doctor, "please check them..." "Show her..." Ye Chenyu copied his pocket with both hands. "I''m just bruised. It''s OK." Then he glanced at Chen Yu, then turned and walked outside "Hey, brother Yu..." Qiao Rui shouted, smiled with Chen, and hurried away with Ye Chenyu. Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu''s back like this and looked down at the corners of his mouth. What mood was changing at the bottom of his eyes. "She seems to have sprained her foot..." Meng Yiyan said to the doctor. The doctor squatted down and examined himself. Just as ye Chenyu stepped out of the lounge, the doctor said, "there are signs of dislocation, but it''s connected. It''s very skillful!" Chen Chen withdrew his sight and looked at the doctor. The position of his heart contracted inexplicably. The misplaced place was connected, and Chen was only scratched. For a person who feels rolling and climbing on the training ground every day, those injuries are nothing "I''ll just come by myself..." Chen said. The doctor nodded. After all, he was a man and a little inconvenient. "Then I''ll go out first." The doctor said hello to Meng Yiyan and left. In the lounge, there were two more people left. Meng Yiyan sat down next to Chen Yu, looked at the man who had changed his combat clothes and sportswear, and asked, "you don''t seem to have a general relationship with Ye Chenyu?" Chapter 1035 Chen Yu frowned slightly and looked at Meng Yiyan He had taken the medicine to treat the friction wound, grabbed Chen''s hand, put it on his leg and began to apply the medicine. "What do you want to ask?" Chen Yu''s voice is light. Meng Yiyan raised his eyes and looked at Chen Yu. "You''re so smart that you don''t know what I''m asking?" "As soon as I came back, I had friction with him..." Chen Fu took back his eyes, but said indifferently, "I can''t talk about friendship." "Oh?" Meng Yiyan smiled and said without any face, "but he obviously makes you very upset." "Some people are born to make others not calm..." Chen Chen Leng hum. He felt a little uncomfortable at the thought of being verbally molested by Ye Chenyu just then. But such discomfort was washed away by his "unique" way of thinking transfer in order to get her misplaced bones. This man is evil enough. Maybe it''s because of his nature or because he''s undercover all year round But she had to admit it. Clearly very uncomfortable actions and words, in Ye Chenyu, but they won''t make people really hate. Chen Yu looked down at his ankles. Just now the doctor said that the connection was very good and the technique was skilled, as if he had been an osteotomy doctor all year round My thoughts gradually drifted away. She went from public security university to studying abroad, and then to training She knows very well, an undercover, or an undercover who has been hidden for so many years, what does she really want to experience? Lu Bureau specifically mentioned him. It''s not easy for people who can leave a number in the eyes of the overall situation. Just Chen Chen''s thoughts gradually precipitated and suddenly felt some emotion. It''s not easy for an undercover to survive. Even, many people can''t afford to live a rotten life and finally push themselves into the abyss. But ye Chenyu "I talked with Qiao Rui for a while at that time," Meng Yiyan said, looking at the silent Chen Yu. "Is Ye Chenyu also one of your men?" "Yes." Chen Yu closed his mind, "one district." "Is there any possibility of private development?" Meng Yiyan asked again. Chen Yu suddenly withdrew his hand. After giving Meng Yiyan a cold look, he took the potion and began to apply it himself. "That makes me angry?" Meng Yiyan asked funny. "Meng Yiyan, don''t you like me very much?" Chen Chen Leng hum, "why, the great people of integrity want to see me happy because they like me?" "Isn''t that why you don''t like me?" Meng Yiyan looked helpless. "I can''t hate because of love, can I?" Then he grabbed the potion and wiped it for Chen. "Besides, if I really hate because of love, my mother can break my leg... I can''t beat her!" "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth, "advice!" "I''ll do it!" Meng Yiyan turned his eyes. "In fact, I like it. As soon as I think of marrying you, if I don''t agree with you, I''ll give me a shoulder fall or something... I can''t stand the acid." Chen Yu snorted. Meng Yiyan laughed. "I think I should find a little sheep... Hide in my arms all day long and short..." he said with a crisp face by imagination, "tut Tut, that''s so interesting." Chen Yu directly and greatly mocked his face and snorted, "do you know why I don''t like you?" "Why?" Meng Yiyan asked subconsciously. Chen Yu pulled the corners of his mouth and said coldly, "because my role is reversed..." "..." Meng Yiyan was speechless, "you''re a personal attack!" "If you think so, it''s good." Chen Yu got up indifferently and went to the rest room "How do you think you should decide whether to win or lose today?" Meng Yiyan also got up. "Find a time to compete again between team D and team F." Chen Yu said without looking back. Meng Yiyan shrugged. "I don''t care. Wait and see ye Chenyu..." "Yes." They went out of the lounge together. As soon as Meng Yiyan stepped out, his mobile phone rang. Seeing the call, Meng Yiyan had a headache. "How can the Empress Dowager call me now?!" Chen Yu rarely showed a warm smile, "you pick it up, I''ll go out first." Meng Yiyan nodded, picked up the phone and put his mobile phone in his ear. "Mom, if you call to ask me to go on a blind date, I''ll hang up..." "You dare!" On the phone, Meng''s mother Dantian sounded a full warning. Meng Yiyan looked bitter and forced, "Mom..." "I''ll tell you, you have to see me today." Meng''s mother directly interrupted Meng Yiyan''s words, "good resources!" "Which one of you is not a good resource?" Meng Yiyan said directly without giving face, "either it''s a specially dressed daughter, or it''s old-fashioned and boring..." "Then you have the ability to marry me back?" Meng mother directly sneered, "if you don''t have the ability, you can go on a blind date for me!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Meng Yiyan grinned and felt that he shouldn''t let his mother know that he liked his sister. "I''ve made an appointment for you anyway. It''s in Wangjiang building at 6:30 p.m.... If you dare not go, I can only be domestic violence!" "Meng Yiyan was speechless again. There is a master of judo at home. He grew up under threat Unexpectedly, he has no character to become extreme, and he is strong! "What does the other party do?" Meng Yiyan asked. Only after knowing the other party''s work can we start to let the other party retreat. Well, this time the reason is very simple, career discord My mother has been violent for many times, because I must have used it for many times. "I didn''t ask specifically. Anyway, it''s the Secretary of the company. He''s very atmospheric..." mother Meng immediately turned on the function of exaggeration. "I see." Meng Yiyan hurriedly interrupted Meng''s mother with a perfunctory voice, "well, my activities here are not over yet. I''ll hang up first..." Without waiting for Meng''s mother to speak, Meng Yiyan hung up the phone and walked out "Hey, where''s Chenyu?" Meng Yiyan turned around and asked. "I answered my aunt''s phone and hurried back..." Qiao Rui is putting the hot pot bottom material into the big iron pot, "brother Yu said that there is no result today. He will go back and make a new appointment with team F." Then he stopped and looked at Chen Chen with an ambiguous smile. "However, sister Chen bought the hot pot order today!" When everyone had fun and it wasn''t working time, Qiao Rui simply followed the people in the club and called sister Chen Chuyu. "Why me?" Chen Leng hiss. "Brother Yu has estimated that you will ask like this..." Qiao Rui rubbed Chen Yu''s side with a bad smile and said in a voice that only two people could hear: "brother Yu said that if you really asked, he said... He also used his strength just holding you." Chen Yu''s face suddenly changed Chapter 1036 Qiao Rui looked at Chen Yu and his face changed. His eyes twinkled with a joking smile. He was completely waiting to see a good play. He was not afraid of big things. "Oh, brother Yu also said... This hug was not at the cordon, but said..." Qiao Rui deliberately paused and said the second half, "... In the lounge!" With a "Teng" look, Chen''s cheek turned red in an uncontrolled moment. "He wants to die!" Chen Yu was so angry that he clenched his teeth and squeezed out a few words. Qiao Rui nodded approvingly, "Chen Ju, I also think..." He tried hard to hold back his smile, "you work harder and remember to clean up more... It''s outrageous to make fun of you!" As he spoke, he looked like he hated it. Chen Yu sneered. When Qiao Rui was dark and cool, he slowly tilted his head, "how do I feel that the person I should clean up first... Is you A flash of lightning hit Qiao Rui''s face. He was "killed in battle" before he saw it?! "Why?!" Qiao Rui looked innocent. "Chen Ju, you''re angry because brother Yu flirted with you... So, take it out on me?" Whether Chen Yu is angry or sober enough to let Qiao Rui die of gossip, I''m afraid only she knows Qiao Rui seldom gossips, but because he gossips about two people who are not easy to provoke, in his future work, he realized that what is called vengeance. In the field club, everyone did not lose enthusiasm because of the danger of accidents. On rainy days, everyone is under the shed, holding several pots boiling hot pot, which is particularly "poetic"! Ye Chenyu drove to Ye''s mother''s villa. All the way, he was wondering why Ye''s mother suddenly called him home. Mom knows that he has activities in the field club today. Generally, she won''t call him Because I know it''s over, everyone will get together. Ye Chenyu thought that the car had stopped in the villa area. He tilted his head and looked at the two cars parked aside, frowning slightly The car next to him seems to be the new Maybach that Beichen drove before going abroad?! Ye Chenyu didn''t think about it any more. He just took the umbrella, opened the door and opened it... All the movements were smooth at will. Push open the door of the villa fence, and the sound of "Ding Ling Dong Long" raindrops hitting the umbrella came faintly mixed with laughter Ye Chenyu smiled and estimated that Gu Beichen came to see mother ye with Jian mo. Open the door Close the umbrella and put it in the filter bucket outside the door "Aunt, don''t get too much..." At the right time, Li Xiaoyue''s voice came. "You can''t finish it later. You have to eat it alone!" "It''s all right. Let Chenyu eat it!" Mother ye said with a smile. She didn''t feel guilty about letting her son eat leftovers at all. "It''s just..." Jane Mo put down the plate and said, "aunt is happy, just let me do it. It''s a big deal. You''ll come back to eat tomorrow!" "Well, well, that''s the best..." "Beichen, drink this tea?" While mother Ye''s happy voice came, Mo Shaochen took a pot of tea out of the kitchen and shook towards Gu Beichen, who was sitting on the sofa watching the news Ye Chenyu frowned instantly. While he looked at Mo Shaochen, who appeared in front of him. At that moment, he simply thought he was hallucinating. Mo Shaochen also saw Ye Chenyu standing at the door. He dropped his hand holding the tea can and looked at the person with a rare dignified expression with a smile. "Beichen said to come and try private dishes," Mo Shaochen smiled at the bottom of his eyes. "When he came, he knew it was your house!" "Private dishes?" Ye Chenyu doubted that the man had gone in and his sight fell on Gu Beichen. "Yes." Gu Beichen''s indifferent sight crossed Mo Shaochen and didn''t pierce him. "Hey, Chenyu, you''re back..." mother Ye happily put a plate of cold dishes on the table. "Wash your hands and you can eat later." Then she went into the kitchen again. Ye Chenyu frowned again. He could understand his mother''s happiness more or less. Whether Shaochen knows it or not, whether he knows it or not, his mother has no reason to be unhappy when she can come home for dinner It''s understandable that Beichen brought Shaochen to eat the so-called "private dishes". Just "I''ll change my clothes..." Ye Chenyu put down his words and went upstairs with his surging worries and extravagant hopes. "What do you want to do?" Seeing the end of the news, Gu Beichen took the remote control to adjust the station. "He was allowed to know the truth before, but now I''m not allowed to pretend to be confused after I know the truth?" Mo Shaochen put down the tea can, looked at the direction of the stairs and said, "it''s rare to see officer Ye''s thoughts are uncertain, losing his calmness and thinking... Keep it as evidence for counterattack in the future." "The pupil is thin and I don''t want to take revenge for you," Gu said "See through," Mo Shaochen shook his head. "After you were with Jane Mo, I found that my mouth was more poisonous." "Thank you!" Gu Beichen received the "praise" indifferently. "Actually, I have a question..." Mo Shaochen picked up the tea can again and turned it in his hand. Looking at the excellent tea turning in the jar, he said gently, "does he like Xiao Yue or not?" Gu Beichen glanced at Mo Shaochen and smiled, "is it important?" "It doesn''t matter," Mo Shaochen shook his head, and his eyes showed the overbearing "anyway, Xiao Yue and I have got the certificate." Gu Beichen''s smile deepened, and they didn''t continue this topic. "Hey, what do you think senior brother Gu and his family are discussing?" Li Xiaoyue met Jian Mo and asked in a low voice. Jian Mo glanced and thought, "I guess I''m discussing why you married your senior brother instead of..." She looked like a ''ha ha ha'' gossip and picked an eyebrow with Li Xiaoyue. Li Xiaoyue pulled at the corners of his mouth and said with a disdain on his face, "you have been with your Gu for a long time, and your belly is getting darker and darker!" Jane Mo grinned, "thank you!" Li Xiaoyue turned into the kitchen and continued to help mother Ye. "Xiaomo didn''t bring Xiaojie here..." mother Ye glanced at Jian Mo angrily. "I''ll bake a cake later, and you can take it back to him." "There will be plenty of opportunities for the family in the future." Jane Mo said with a smile. As for the word "family", mother Ye is very comfortable. "OK..." mother Ye nodded with a smile and then looked at Li Xiaoyue. "You and Shaochen were born early. Your parents are abroad. I''m idle and in good health. I can take..." Ye''s mother said that her hands didn''t stop doing dishes. She didn''t notice that Li Xiaoyue''s face became a little bad. Chapter 1037 Jane Mo gently touched Li Xiaoyue, and then joked to ease the atmosphere and said, "aunt, you can''t count on Chenyu for a while?" "You see through..." As expected, mother Ye was taken away by Jane morla, and began to complain about ye Chenyu''s undercover before. It was not easy to be normal, and he didn''t find a woman Jane Mo pulled the topic more and more biased, and mother Ye naturally didn''t mention the child again. "Now the medical treatment is so developed," Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue took the dishes out of the kitchen and whispered comfort. "Moreover, you''re not completely, but it''s not easy... Looking back, it''s uncertain that the little angel came quietly." Li Xiaoyue pulled the corners of his mouth astringently, "girl, I can stand up and marry my senior brother again... I think I''ve consumed all my luck." "How could it?" Jian Mo put down the dishes, looked at Li Xiaoyue and said with a smile, "I hope on the road, as long as we keep moving forward, we will always encounter missing good luck, won''t we?" Li Xiaoyue looked at Li Xiaoyue quietly for a while and smiled Timely, ye Chenyu changed his home clothes from upstairs. People''s eyes couldn''t help looking at the past As always, the evil spirit is a little more easygoing. "Do you still like this when you see go at home?" Mo Shaochen was the first to speak. "Mom likes..." Ye Chenyu answered casually. "Will you?" Mo Shaochen asked again. Ye Chenyu just nodded and asked, "why, do you want to take a game?" "OK..." Mo Shaochen raised his eyebrows. "Dad likes it, too. I know a little." As he spoke, his eyes tightly locked Ye Chenyu''s expression. Ye Chenyu paid no attention to Mo Shaochen''s saying "Dad" instead of "my father". He didn''t change his face, but turned to get the chessboard But, in his heart, he has been thinking about how much mo Shaochen guessed or doubted according to what happened in the cemetery yesterday? Playing go is a matter of concentration. Once you are impatient, you can guarantee to lose! Mother Ye likes go, which is why she met Mo Huai. As Mo Huai''s sons, Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu are obviously not weak in this regard After half a game, black and white were glued on the chessboard. Both of them seemed to be fighting hard, and no one would give in. "Hissing..." Gu Beichen put away his sight from the chessboard and looked at Jian Mo who made a sound. Jian Mo motioned, Gu Beichen calmly put down his overlapping legs and walked over "What?" Jian Mo looked at the two men immersed in the chess game. "Don''t Ye Chenyu know that Shaochen already knows?" Gu Beichen smiled, "HMM." "What does Shaochen want?" "What do you think?" Gu Beichen asked. "Well, well done!" Jian Mo nodded, looked at Ye Chenyu''s direction and said, "however, I''m really surprised. Shaochen not only didn''t reject at all, but seemed very happy." Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo and looked deeply at Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu, who had no time for anything around because of the stalemate in the chess game. He said quietly, "family is more important than anything." Many people don''t understand, because they have never lost... So they don''t know happiness in happiness. But Shaochen lost it and understood the importance of his family. Now that I understand, why should I exclude my family because of something they shouldn''t undertake? In fact, this principle is very simple, but many people can''t. "Mom has changed a lot now. You can see from Xiao Yue''s things..." Jane Mo circled Gu Beichen''s waist, smiled and said, "ah Chen, mom is trying to change, and you shouldn''t complain all the time." "Do I?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "I''m generous enough." After so much happened, at least he didn''t feel resentment. Jane Mo smiled. "Last night, I went back to the manor for dinner. My mother whispered that you disliked her cooking." "Where?" "Yes..." "Oh, that''s probably because your cooking is so delicious... No comparison, no harm!" "Is that my fault?" Jane Mo was immediately dissatisfied. "No, it''s my fault..." Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo''s forehead. "Next time I go back, I''ll pay attention, um... Don''t show it." However, the next time she went back to dinner, cen Lanxi made the dishes Gu Beichen loved particularly delicious. Some are lost and we can''t recover them. At least, there is a chance to remedy For example, try to do something that makes him happy for his family. The chess game was stuck in the busy cooking room of mother ye, and finally ended with Mo Shaochen winning a son. "Yes?" Mo Shaochen leaned slowly on the sofa and looked at it through his eyes. Ye Chenyu shook his head. "You are a lawyer. Obviously, your heart is quieter than mine." "I don''t agree with that." Mo Shaochen said, "in terms of calmness, who can compare with you in this room except Beichen?" A light eh, with a hint of coercion. Ye Chenyu frowned slightly, "what do you want to say?" "I just want to know if you let me......" Mo Shaochen shrugged. "In the chess game, it is disrespectful to give way to an opponent with equal strength." Ye Chenyu just spoke faintly. Mo Shaochen frowned slightly, lowered his eyes and mused, "this is very familiar..." He seemed to be trying to recall. Just as ye Chenyu frowned, he raised his eyes and said, "Dad said such words before!" "..." Ye Chenyu grinned secretly. The atmosphere in the living room was somewhat treacherous. Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu''s eyes collided in an instant, as if some sparks were gradually bursting out Ye Chenyu frowned secretly. He knew that Mo Shaochen''s mind must have guessed something in the clues, but it was just that it was difficult for him to speak. "Now that you have guessed, why ask?" Ye Chenyu said such a sentence after a long time. Mo Shaochen sneered, "guess?" He said softly, "what did I guess?" Ye Chenyu frowned, his eyes narrowed slightly, and didn''t speak. Mo Shaochen didn''t speak, so he waited There were four other people in the family, but at this moment, it seemed to them that everything didn''t exist. "Will it... Fight?" Jane Mo asked in a relaxed whisper. "Shaochen can''t fight." Gu Beichen said casually, "fight, I''ll help him." "Who are you and ye Chenyu?" Jane Mo looked curious in such a tense atmosphere. "Me!" Gu Beichen said without thinking. Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "I don''t think so." "Huh?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly at Jian Mo''s suspicion. Jian Mo said solemnly: "listen to Xiao Yue, the most powerful thing about ye Chenyu is to find safety in danger..." Gu Beichen chuckled and didn''t refute Jian mo. The fun of this little woman now is to "tease" him. Then she''s happy It''s easy here, but mother Ye is obviously worried. The atmosphere between Ye Chenyu and Mo Shaochen became more and more dignified with the confrontation Mo Shaochen''s greatest advantage is patience and waiting for the other party to reveal his flaws. Ye Chenyu''s greatest advantage is calm and ready to move at any time. Unfortunately Everyone can''t calm down, and Mo Shaochen is what ye Chenyu is not calm at present. "I''m a child outside Mo Huai. I''m your brother by blood..." Ye Chenyu said in a complicated voice for a long time. "If you want me to say this personally, as you wish!" ~~ The comic version of "expensive ex wives" has updated its second sentence today. You can read the top post of the circle, or search the title of the book to enter the comic version to see how the crazy boss Gu teases his wife o (¡É¡É) O Chapter 1038 The atmosphere became complicated by Ye Chenyu''s words. Even the air seems to be filled with an indescribable breath Mother Ye is a little nervous. She knows that Mo Shaochen accepted Ye Chenyu. However, at this moment, it was out of control, because ye Chenyu''s "confession" followed the contraction of his heart Li Xiaoyue came forward to help mother ye, smiled at her and nodded to reassure her. Ye Chenyu looked at Mo Shaochen quietly, waiting for his reaction However, Mo Shaochen kept looking at him for a long time and didn''t respond! The frown grew tighter and tighter. Ye Chenyu was very uneasy when something happened, and gradually spread in the waiting Seeing that the two brothers were in a stalemate, mother Ye couldn''t bear to say to Ye Chenyu, "well, have dinner..." "Good!" Mo Shaochen takes back his sight of the confrontation with Ye Chenyu, turns back to mother ye and gets up. Ye Chenyu felt puzzled at the bottom of his eyes. He told the truth. How did Shaochen react so warmly to his mother?! Mo Shaochen looked down at Ye Chenyu and said with a smile, "brother, eat first and wait..." The words fell, and regardless of Ye Chenyu''s stunned eyes, he had turned and took the lead to the table. Gu Beichen smiled deeply and took a seat with Jian mo "Have you seen him like this?" Asked Jane Mo gossip. Gu Beichen glanced at Ye Chenyu and shook his head, "some gaffes!" "Well," Jane nodded with a smile, "but human nature." Ye Chenyu still sat in place and looked at the table Mother ye and others happily arranged the seats and introduced the dishes at the same time. Ye Chenyu suddenly felt that he had been fooled. It was the kind of thing that everyone knew. He was in the dark and nervous alone. Shit! Ye Yu was scolded, but the corners of his mouth were not controlled Why does he feel that so many worries in the past have become a joke when he looks back at this moment. "Hey, that brother..." when mother ye saw that ye Chenyu didn''t move, she smiled and said, "if you don''t come to dinner, you''ll be full watching us eat?!" "I guess it''s silly to be happy!" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and said. "My wife is right..." Gu Beichen looked slowly, and Mo Tong looked at Ye Chenyu deeply. His thin lips were obviously teasing. Mo Shaochen also looked at Ye Chenyu and smiled softly at the corners of his mouth. However, the bottom of his eyes overflowed and there was little abdominal darkness. "You''ve seen enough jokes. What else do you eat?" Ye Chenyu got up and went to the table. "Shouldn''t we all laugh?" "Why, you are allowed to look at me with understanding all the time..." Mo Shaochen raised his eyebrow. "Don''t you allow me to retaliate?" "OK!" Ye Chenyu shrugged, "you can say anything!" "That''s..." Mo Shaochen answered and smiled. Such a smile is relaxed and mixed with joy. Family meals, warm, will become "sunny" the whole rainy day. The laughter on the dinner table is full of excitement Nothing is more peaceful and comfortable than having a peaceful and pleasant meal together. But compared with the happiness of mother Ye''s house, the ink palace far under the blue sky is gloomy and breathless. Shi Shaoqin''s gorgeous face was shrouded in a haze that anyone could see. The people in Mo Palace are in danger. They dare not breathe for fear that they will be burned. There was something wrong with a batch of goods delivered in the past two days, and the purity of production did not meet the standard, which directly led to the loss of more than ten digits in Mogong... It is still a conservative estimate. "Qin Shao, the name list of these goods has been sorted out..." awei came forward and said coldly. For Mo palace, under such mistakes, those people often have only one way to go Will let them understand, what glue is better than death! Someone has started to howl because of fear, and even someone wants to run away... Even if the behavior is so ridiculous. Shi Shaoqin looked at it coldly. The cold and bloody life was already an existence that could not be cut out in his life. "Stone..." "Young master... Don''t go there!" "Woo..." star was hugged by Qingqing. She struggled in her arms, twisted her small body, and bent down and shouted. "Stone... Let go... Sobbing... Stone..." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and then turned around. See Qingqing holding the twisting star is about to leave "Stone..." When star saw Shi Shaoqin looking back, he was excited and danced and twisted more and more. Qingqing lifted up her whole heart and carried it in her heart. For fear that star would suddenly come here and annoy Shi Shaoqin, she would cut her. Shi Shaoqin came over, and star immediately asked for a hug He sighed, reached out and held star in his arms. "Why are you here?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was soft, but his cold sight crossed Qingqing. Qingqing quickly hung her head and touched the corners of her mouth. It was hard to hide her nervousness. But star obediently kissed Shi Shaoqin heavily on his face, then grinned and said, "look for a stone, look for a stone!" Shi Shaoqin''s originally gloomy mood was as gorgeous as the scorching sun in the sky. With a crisp smile and big black eyes, star looked at many people standing nearby and immediately patted his hands, "stand, have fun..." Shi Shaoqin looked back. Just now someone who wanted to escape was crushed to the ground. "All have to stand... Stones, all have to stand!" Star clapped his hands excitedly and asked. Awei has a headache. He can promise Qin Shao, who has no integrity in front of star, may really let everyone stand. Sure enough "Stand up!" Shi Shaoqin said indifferently, "stand all the way." The people who were to be "executed" suddenly seemed to see hope. While standing still, they looked at star with expectation in their eyes. When star saw everyone standing up, he felt very funny and immediately rubbed off Shi Shaoqin Star looked at everyone and looked up at him again. It''s just that he doesn''t look in order In the end, Shi Shaoqin found that although he didn''t follow the order, he didn''t miss anyone or repeat! "Qin Shao," awei went to Shi Shaoqin, "the person who made a mistake..." "When star is finished." Shi Shaoqin''s indifferent voice overflowed the beautiful lips, but looked at star''s line of sight, but it was soft and outrageous. "Yes!" Awei answered. At the same time, star hopped happily and ran to Shi Shaoqin with short legs "Stone, play tomorrow!" Star turned his head and pointed at the men with his little blue agate hand. "They!" Star''s excited words just fell. Aweton was out of control and the corners of his mouth twitched. Chapter 1039 Shi Shaoqin squatted down, looked at Star tenderly and asked, "do you remember?" "Remember..." star grinned and clapped his hands, squinting and smiling. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes became softer and softer. While awei gradually widened his eyes, he said softly, "OK, return them!" "Stone kiss..." Star happily kisses Shi Shaoqin on his face again, then puts his small arm around his neck, and his small face keeps rubbing on his cheek. Occasionally, I was scratched by the dark stubble of beard residue, itched, and laughed more and more happily. Awei frowned and watched Shi Shaoqin pick up star and turn around. The whole person was covered with hostility. Compared with the dissatisfaction on awei''s face, those who were to be punished saw hope one by one After today, once something happens after the whole Mo palace, what they pray for is not to escape, but the emergence of star. Carney told Shi juechi about it. At the end, he laughed. "I feel that the ink palace is still very peaceful in the future..." "Yes!" Shi juechi stood in front of the window, looked at the large sunflowers in front of him, stood proudly against the sun, and said with emotion: "no matter how hard everyone''s heart is... There is also a soft place." Beichen''s softness is foam, while Shaoqin''s... Is star! The next day, the weather in Mo palace was still very good. The sky is washed, and the clean is connected with the ocean, which makes people unable to distinguish whether the distant place is the horizon or the sea level Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the standing crowd with his hands in his pockets. Star was looking for someone. He deliberately changed the three people yesterday and disrupted the position where he stood yesterday He wants to see if star can really remember. The little guy was looking for it and tooted his mouth for the first time. As if unwilling to find it again With sadness on his small face, star turned and ran to Shi Shaoqin and said angrily, "no!" "Huh?" Shi Shaoqin deliberately questioned. "No!" Star became more and more angry. It was lovely and distressing. Shi Shaoqin squatted down. "How many are wrong?" The little guy frowned. Obviously, he didn''t have any concept of numbers, and his face was at a loss. Shi Shaoqin rubbed star''s head. "Find it out and have a look at it, huh?" As soon as star heard this, he immediately grinned and turned to find After a while, he found three wrong people. Everyone was shocked at this moment. I didn''t expect that star actually wrote down everyone yesterday... There was nothing wrong with them. "Come on, it''s really such a thing." Xi Cheng shook his head with exclamation and said, "I have such a powerful gene that I should be able to give birth to a genius in the future, ha ha!" His narcissism was ignored. Naturally, no one heard it. "Shall we play a game?" Shi Shaoqin asked star. "OK..." star''s eyes lit up, "game... Play!" "According to yesterday''s position, you stood them right, huh?" "Yes." Star wrinkled his small nose, nodded heavily, turned and went to the crowd. Star didn''t disappoint Shi Shaoqin. Although it took a long time, he didn''t make a mistake in any position in the end. "Star''s memory is amazing..." Shi juechi went to Shi Shaoqin and looked at star, who was excited because he got it right. Shi Shaoqin glanced at Shi Jue Chi, "HMM." A gentle word is full of praise for "your child" and shows the pride of talent. "Don''t waste it. You should give good guidance." "Let him." Shi Shaoqin put on a shallow smile at the corners of his mouth. "He''s just happy. He doesn''t want to be deliberate or force." When the words fell, Shi Shaoqin walked up to star Shi Jue Chi''s mouth angle also raised a smile, which was full of comfort. He said that on purpose just now, but Shaoqin answered so. That''s nice Only those who have a soft heart will not deliberately pursue anything. ¡­¡­ The rain in Los Angeles, large and small, continued for almost a week before the scorching sun appeared. Moisture evaporated from the ground, making this summer a little uncomfortable. The pedestrians on the road showed weakness. It seemed that everyone just wanted to stay in the air-conditioned room and didn''t want to get close to nature. "Gu Zonghao!" Zhao Qianyu almost bumped into Gu Beichen with a pile of data. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly and looked at Zhao Qianyu pushing down his glasses. The ink pupil gradually became deep. Zhao Qianyu grinned secretly. Gu Beichen stared at her like this, as if she were a transparent body. "It''s me!" Zhao Qianyu decided to be honest. However, just finished, she looked around very funny, and then frowned with contempt. Vice President Xiao and Secretary Su have gone to a high-level meeting. What is she afraid of?! "Xiao Jing didn''t doubt you?" Gu Beichen glanced at Zhao Qianyu lightly, and then walked to the office with one hand copying his pocket. Zhao Qianyu followed up, "I told vice president Xiao that I have a twin sister." Gu Beichen glanced at Zhao Qianyu lightly, "he won''t believe it." "Yes!" Zhao Qianyu nodded and looked like "I won''t admit it even if I''m killed" anyway. "He kept forcing me. Unfortunately, it''s useless!" Gu Beichen indifferently entered the office. Although he hadn''t come for two or three months, it was still clean and spotless. "Don''t happen again. I can stay out of it." Gu Beichen warned. Zhao Qianyu left his mouth and muttered in a low voice, "I sell all the companies you want to buy. I gave you a reason to force mergers and acquisitions. You have to thank me!" "Huh?" Gu Beichen frowned. Zhao Qianyu quickly grinned and shook his head "No, no... I mean, my purpose is to be human. I will never do anything, nor dare I do anything in front of you." Gu Beichen''s cold convergent eyes, "go out!" "Yes!" Zhao Qianyu bowed down with the folder in his arms, and then walked out of the office. However, when I saw Xiao Jing and Susan standing by the door, my face suddenly changed in surprise. "It seems..." Xiao jingpi said with a smile. "You and Chen Shao know each other?!" "No!" Zhao Qianyu shook his head numbly, then nodded again, "know! Who doesn''t know Gu? You must know!" "Ha ha!" Xiao Jing sneered and then withdrew his sight coldly. Zhao Qianyu was forced hard on his face. In that way, he was about to cry. Is this meeting too fast?! Susan held back her smile, looked at Xiao Jing and Zhao Qianyu, and motioned her to do something first Zhao Qianyu held his mouth and bowed his head, as if he had lost his supporting bone. He angrily held the document and planned to go to each floor to issue an approval. "Chen Shao, I don''t want to say anything else at the moment." Xiao Jing stood in front of Gu Beichen with a dark face. Gu Beichen just glanced at him indifferently, and then slowly leaned back in the chair Xiao Jing endured his anger and asked, "just tell me, from beginning to end, is it your routine?!" Chapter 1040 The eagle looked at the north sky indifferently and didn''t answer. Xiao Jing still stared, angry and a trace of depression. Susan just glanced at him and put down the information about the upcoming meeting, "Chen Shao, I''ll go out first." "Yes." Gu Beichen calmly answered. Susan turned and looked at Xiao Jing again, then turned and left Gu Beichen''s office. Gu Beichen didn''t have any emotion on his face from beginning to end. He was so indifferent. After Susan left the office, she only heard him say, "I won''t answer any questions," he sat up slightly, "I''ll give you a holiday today and think for myself." Xiao Jing only felt that there was a mouthful of old blood in his chest to spray out. The feeling of choking was his most familiar chenshao. However, familiarity is one thing, and putting it on yourself is another. "What if I can''t figure it out today?" Xiao Jing gritted his teeth. Gu Beichen looked at him indifferently, "then put it until you figure it out." Xiao Jing frowned slightly and stared at Gu Beichen tightly. "Then I really need a good holiday..." Xiao Jing coldly put down a word and put the folder in his hand on the table. Without saying anything, he turned and left the office. Susan looked up, looked through the glass at Xiao Jing, shrouded in a heavy figure, and frowned slightly. The sound of "Ding" elevator arriving came. Zhao Qianyu pushed down his glasses and walked out inertia at the moment when the elevator door opened. But when she stood in the middle of the elevator door, she saw a shadow. She subconsciously looked up ¡°¡­¡­¡± "It''s really a good game." Xiao Jing looked at Zhao Qianyu and sneered. He took back his sight indifferently, passed her indifferently and entered the elevator. Zhao Qianyu lowered the corner of his mouth, slowly lowered his eyes, collected the sadness from the bottom of his eyes, and lifted his feet The elevator closed mercilessly behind him. Zhao Qianyu was out of control and his eyes became red. Turning around and looking at the falling number, the nose is more and more sour. Susan came out of the office at the right time. She first looked at Zhao Qianyu, who was still standing at the elevator, and then knocked on Gu Beichen''s door. "Enter." Susan went in. "Chen Shao, Xiao Jing, he..." "I can''t figure it out. It''s useless to say anything." Gu Beichen opened his mouth lightly and looked at the data without stopping. Susan''s expression was obviously dignified. "I''m afraid he can''t figure it out." "Oh..." Gu Beichen stopped his movements and looked up. He looked at Susan and said with deep meaning, "if so, he can really not stay with me." Susan frowned even tighter. Gu Beichen didn''t intend to say anything more to Susan, but hung his eyes and continued to deal with the things left by Xiao Jing after the meeting. "Then Zhao Qianyu..." Susan paused and asked. Gu Beichen took the pen and signed, "no accident, she will resign." "Ah?!" Susan was obviously surprised. Gu Beichen handed the signed document to Susan, "inform the personnel department that she wants to resign and approve it!" Susan''s lips moved and wanted to say something, but she was blocked by Gu Beichen. "Worry about yourself, Xiao Jing will be fine." Susan swallowed her words and just sighed, "then I''ll go out and work first." "I heard you''ve been on a blind date lately?" Just as Susan turned around, Gu Beichen suddenly asked. Susan shrugged, smiled and nodded. "How''s it going?" Susan slanted her eyes and said after a slight meditation, "that was good last weekend. I''m going to enter the state of communication." Gu Beichen looked at Susan with deep eyes. After a few seconds, he nodded. ¡­¡­ The silver gray Cayenne galloped through the streets of Los Angeles, causing a whistling sound on the road. Xiao Jing''s eyes were sharp and gloomy. He stepped on the foot of the accelerator and kept pressing It seemed that speed could not give him a way to eliminate his anger. "Squeak -" The harsh brake sound stopped in front of the gate of heaven night, breaking the original silence. Xiao Jing''s hand held the steering wheel tightly, and his eyes fell in front, deeper and deeper. The security guard of Paradise night came over and knocked on the window, "Hello, you can''t park here..." The sound of "bare" came in a dignified atmosphere, and the window was lowered. When the security guard saw that it was Xiao Jing, he was stunned at first, and then asked suspiciously, "brother Jing, why are you here so early..." Xiao Jing glanced at the security guard indifferently, loosened his seat belt, opened the door and got off. "Stop..." Xiao Jing threw the car key to the security guard, and then strode into heaven night with one hand. The dark box was full of alcohol. On the tea table, there are all kinds of wine bottles scattered Some are empty and upside down, and some are left inside. Xiao Jing didn''t know how long he had drunk or how much wine he had drunk. His eyes were blurred and there was an illusion. The door of the box was pushed open, and he raised his slightly drunk eyes. He just saw a tall figure standing in the backlight Xiao Jing weakly fanned his eyes and spread them on the sofa. "What you say this time, I won''t believe you..." Xiao Jing said with a big tongue, "Gu Beichen, I tell you... In this life, I shouldn''t follow you." He closed his eyes, but he kept saying, "look, follow brother Owl... He went after a woman, and I''ll eat, drink and have fun all day." "Tell me, I rely on wool..." "At Leeds hospital, you were like a fucking loser..." "Why is it so bad?" "I''m also fucking cheap..." Xiao Jing sneered at himself. "It''s a miracle that I''m still with you after being cheated by you so many times." Gu Beichen sat down beside Xiao Jing, didn''t speak, just indifferently took out the smoke and lit it "Do you know that I was angry when I came out... I regretted it." Xiao Jing smiled helplessly, "tell me, why am I so cheap?" "In fact, I''m a little lost..." Gu Beichen took a cigarette and still didn''t speak. "Just explain to me that you can die?" Xiao Jing smashed his mouth, "shit, I have to think about everything myself. You can''t say it. Let me be hypocritical..." "Have you considered it?" Gu Beichen asked softly. Xiao Jing closed his eyes and shook his head. "Don''t think about it. Why should I think about it... Why should I be cheated by you every day? I''m determined not to think about it!" Gu Beichen lowered his eyes, and his thin lips overflowed with a shallow smile. "Have a drink with you?" Gu Beichen is light. "No!" Xiao Jing opened his eyes and his sight became more and more illusory. "The ghost is drinking with you pit goods." Gu Beichen listened and his smile deepened. He leaned over slightly, put out the smoke in the ashtray and got up, "drink it yourself slowly, I''ll go..." "Teng" for a moment, Xiao Jing suddenly sat up. Due to excessive force, the dizzy head seems to have a shot put rolling, "shit, you really left?!" Chapter 1041 "Otherwise?" Gu Beichen turned around, with a hint of fun under the evil charm on his cold, carved face. Xiao Jing was dizzy. He lay back on the sofa and was a little discouraged. "Alas, I''ve been with you for so many years, you know me, I know you..." Xiao Jing rubbed his blocked nose, "many things have really become a habit." Gu Beichen smiled and walked back again. He took the glass and poured the wine. "Would you like a toast?" Xiao Jing sat up, his eyes still unreal, took the cup and found Gu Beichen''s Cup in the virtual shadow for a long time. They both looked up and drank Gu Beichen said slowly, "I went to Leeds this time and took Mo''er with me." "Yes." Xiao Jing answered gently. "I told Mo''er that when I first met you..." Gu Beichen didn''t let Xiao Jing drink any more, but poured the wine again. Xiao Jing''s memory was instantly pulled into his memory On the corridor of the hospital, Gu Beichen seemed to have only a body left. "Xiao Jing, what I do in my life is you..." Gu Beichen said softly, "with you on my back, I never need to worry or have doubts." "Don''t say that, shit..." Xiao Jing glanced at Gu Beichen. "I was moved when I turned back and forgot to be angry." Gu Beichen looked at the wine in the cup and smiled, "OK." Xiao Jing tilted his mouth and took back his sight. His eyes were lax without any focus. "Then there''s nothing to say..." Gu Beichen drank up the wine, put it down and got up again. "Gu Beichen," said Xiao Jing immediately, "can''t you talk about Zhao Qianyu?" "She has nothing to say." Gu Beichen stood, his eagle eyes narrowed gradually, and he walked outside the box. "Actually, I think so!" Xiao Jing smiled at himself. Gu Beichen pulled the hand of the box door and stopped. "The project was obtained because my certificate information was copied, and then sold. It''s true..." Xiao Jing rubbed his swollen temples. "Finally, you pit me, by the way." Gu Beichen smiled at the corners of his mouth. "If Zhao Qianyu didn''t sell the project, I figured you would find another place to pit me..." Xiao Jing was dissatisfied. "Anyway, brothers are used to pit." "Hey..." Xiao Jing sighed with his eyes closed. "Who made me immortal and gave you such a good chance?" "Didn''t you say you didn''t think about it?" Gu Beichen looked back at Xiao Jing. Xiao Jing opened his eyes and gradually focused on Gu Beichen. "You can give me your back, and I can let you have a carefree back... Gu Beichen, we are brothers!" In a word, it is very simple, but it contains a lot Xiao Jingzhi is different from Gu Beichen and the Dragon owls. It was not an emotion that could be described, but a part of the body that could not be cut along the way. It''s friendship and life! Is that each other can die for each other without any hesitation! ¡­¡­ The colorful neon lights at night and the lights under the traffic flow converge to pull out the prosperity of the night. "Ah --" Suddenly, someone shouted, which immediately attracted the eyes of people nearby. "My child, someone robbed my child..." the woman pointed to a car like crazy and began to shout. The whole person had a rhythm of collapse in an instant. Chen Yugang just parked his car in the parking space. When he heard the sound, he looked in the direction pointed by the woman I saw a black van, which had already left. Get in the car, start, boom the accelerator The car rushed out after the sound of "bare" tires rubbing the ground came Chen Yu drove through the crowd with superb skills and chased the position of the van. He had no psychology to encircle the crowd and pointed at the people frantically pursued by women. Naturally, there is no mood to sigh. Today''s human feelings are cold and warm. Chen Yu chased out of the intersection because she was in the commercial street. Coupled with the time difference, she didn''t see which direction the van was going to leave in the end. Taking out her mobile phone, her car stopped at the intersection. Despite the whistle of the shuttle, her mobile phone slid on her mobile phone quickly. Soon, she cut into the road control system Turning on the car phone, Chen Yu chased the van away and said, "I''m Chen Yu. Connect my phone to the console." "OK, Chen Ju!" The sound of "drop" crossed, and Chen Chen''s eyes opened slightly, "I''m Chen, Chenguang Road, a black van with the car number of Luo a249b7... Intercepted by the patrol on duty." Her words just fell. Suddenly, patrol cars on duty from all parties began to respond. Chen Yu continued to give orders, calm and arrogant. The whistling of police sirens is particularly harsh at night. People in nightlife look at it one after another and don''t know what happened. Chen Yu''s speed has been "out of control". In a pair of cold eyes, he endured some emotion. "Chen Ju, found Luo a249b7 black van..." "Send navigation to my mobile phone." "Yes!" Chen Yu''s feet on the accelerator have all been pressed down Chen Yu stopped at his destination and looked at an SUV and SWAT patrol car parked in front of him. While frowning slightly, he got out of the car. "Ow... Brother, let go... Let go... Ow..." There was a terrible howl, mixed with a report. "Ye Dui, I have replied to the general controller, vehicle and personnel control!" "Yes!" Ye Chenyu leaned on a not too thick tree trunk and watched the special police stand several men in the van, "give you another chance. Where did the child come from?" "Yes, my son... Ow..." Before the man finished his words, a howl came again. "Ye Dui, don''t tell the truth." "Then waste his hands first..." said Ye Chenyu ruffian. "Don''t say, waste his feet again!" "You are the police, you can''t do this..." someone has begun to protest. Ye Chenyu smiled, "what did I do?" He asked, "did you just see and hear anything?" "Brother Yu, we didn''t hear anything..." The special police cooperated one by one and said, "we only saw that they accidentally drove into the ditch in order to avoid arrest, and then their hands and feet were broken uncontrollably." As soon as ye Chenyu heard this, he immediately nodded, "well, it''s good... I''ll enjoy a can of drinks when I go back!" "Thank you, team Ye!" The special police officers were happy and satisfied one by one. Those who were caught looked shocked, "you... You know the law and break the law. I''ll sue you!" The man who spoke was slapped hard. "Sue us when you''re not guilty!" The hot tempered little SWAT sneered, "say you or not?" He asked, ready to do it again. Those people were also counselled. After a few seconds, they hurried to say, "I said, I said... We robbed the child..." As soon as he said this, the little SWAT not only didn''t let him go, but immediately came forward and punched and kicked him for a while. "Shit, how many families have been killed by you because of you scum in society... I''ll fucking beat you to death!" Suddenly, the atmosphere was strange and stiff "Hissing..." Someone reminded me that he took advantage of the situation to hold the little Swat. The crowd looked along his line of sight... And saw Chen Chen standing behind the van in the ditch. Everyone stared at Ye Chenyu in an instant and then looked at Ye Chenyu This is terrible! When the superior sees them enforcing the law like this, don''t mention the internal punishment first. It is estimated that the report will be written dead. "Ye Dui..." Someone whispered. But ye Chenyu just kept leaning against the tree, and his eyes were evil. "Chen Ju came very fast!" Chapter 1042 As soon as the captured people heard that the leader was coming, they quickly winked one by one Just under the strange atmosphere, the people who were beaten by the little special police howled for a while. "Are you police or hooligans..." "Hit people..." "Ah - I want an examination!" As soon as he howled, the people with him immediately screamed and kept accusing Ye Chenyu of their ruffian law enforcement. The whole SWAT team, except ye Chenyu, was still leaning on the tree trunk, and the rest were silent one by one. No matter how hateful the criminals are, it''s really inappropriate for them to do that. In fact, in the past, they would definitely take it easy But now we have a leader who doesn''t play cards according to common sense, and everyone has no foundation. "Well, Chen Ju..." When a special police officer saw that ye Chenyu didn''t intend to speak, he kept getting dark in his heart. The cool leader licked his face and planned to explain a little There was some embarrassment in the atmosphere. The arrested people saw something more and the accusations became more and more exaggerated. Suddenly Just before everyone had time to react, Chen suddenly came forward and kicked the person who had been howling all the time. "Hissing..." For a while, the special police heard the sound, and even someone touched his chest. There was a feeling that his foot was kicked on him, which was very sour. "You..." The man just said a word. Chen has grabbed his collar with both hands and lifted it up. After pressing him onto the car, the one holding the fist waved it again The special police stared straight one by one and opened their mouths one after another. They couldn''t react at all. Ye Chenyu still kept his evil posture, but his eyes looking at Chen''s actions gradually became deep and bottomless. The sound of "bang bang" was mixed with the sharp sound of scream. With Chen Yu''s "vent" action, the special police''s expression was straight. The people who were caught were afraid that it would be their turn to wait. If we say, at that time, the action of the special police was already violent. At that moment, Chen Chen was just sharp "You can''t hit me... Ah... You are the police. You can''t casually... Ow..." "I''m wrong, stop... Ow..." "Oh!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± A slightly older special police officer walked up to Ye Chenyu, looked at Chen Chen''s beating and asked, "team ye, if it goes on like this... Will there be a problem?!" "Don''t worry, she knows!" Ye Chenyu''s voice was soft and casual. But the special police on one side looked at Chen Yu''s actions and the howling of those people, and their eyebrows tightened. "How do I feel that Chen Bureau has lost some calmness?" "It''s better to say..." Ye Chenyu smiled at the corners of his mouth, "I''ve lost my mind." "Huh?" The special police officer looked at Ye Chenyu with a blank face. Ye Chenyu didn''t explain. He just got up and stepped towards Chen Yu. When she suddenly clenched her fist to hit a trafficker, ye Chenyu grabbed her wrist, "OK!" Chen Yu''s anger did not subside, and even he felt red eyed. She wanted to take back her wrist, but ye Chenyu had expected it and didn''t give her a chance Chen Yu suddenly looked at Ye Chenyu, and the two looked at each other. One stared and the other was dignified under the warning. Chen Yu didn''t completely lose his mind. He just clenched his teeth and gradually restrained his anger. "What did you see just now?" As Chen Yu asked, he pulled his hand back. Ye Chenyu lowered his eyes and said to the audience in one voice: "in the process of arrest, the criminals were eager to escape, and the car unfortunately fell into the ditch and was injured..." "Well, luckily the child is all right!" Ye Chenyu added. Chen Yu was originally angry, but finally because ye Chenyu made up a serious sentence, the corners of his mouth overflowed with a smile. When ye Chenyu saw the smile from the corners of Chen''s mouth, he winked at her and looked evil. Chen Yu coughed slightly, restrained his smile, and said in order to cover up his embarrassment, "well, children can be taught!" "Thank Chen Bureau for praising..." Chen Yu glanced at Ye Chenyu and looked across the crowd. "I''ll buy you a drink tonight." The special police looked at each other and said happily one by one, "thank you, Chen Ju." Chen Yu didn''t know whether he had just let it out, or because the special police, who should have been cold and hard, were free and evil at the moment, and the corners of his mouth were uncontrollably overflowing with a faint smile. "You''ve worked hard..." Chen said. "Wait, the traffic police will come to deal with the vehicle and see if it''s a fake card... The child has confirmed his parents, and the procedure should be as simple as possible." "Yes!" Chen Yu and the special police officer who immediately ordered him to stand straight nodded. After taking a look at Ye Chenyu, he turned and walked to his car "According to the arrangement of Chen Bureau, I also left." Ye Chenyu put down his words and ignored those people. One by one, under Qiao Rui''s "edification", he turned and left. "Are you interested in a drink?" Ye Chenyu took a big step. When he got to the road, he caught up with Chen Yu. Chen Yu stopped. "Aren''t you on duty?" "When I passed by, I heard the news from the general controller and stopped by..." Ye Chenyu slightly raised his eyebrow. "Mainly, I''ll have a rest tomorrow." Chen Yu lowered his eyes slightly, then nodded, "here is the cross into the city, please lose!" "Your two million sports car and my two hundred thousand SUV?" Ye Chenyu''s evil spirit is light. "Hum!" Chen Yu nodded and made it clear that I was bullying you. "Don''t cry if you lose..." Ye Chenyu smiled deeply, looked at Chen Yu, and then turned to his car. Chen Shu glanced at Ye Chenyu''s back and couldn''t stand his arrogance. Ye Chenyu''s SUV of about 200000 can''t compare with her sports car in speed. Besides, even in terms of driving skills, I''m afraid it''s not a grade. However, Chen Yu never thought that she had thrown Ye Chenyu far away. Why did he appear at the intersection first?! "Did you fly here?" Chen Yu got out of the car and walked to Ye Chenyu, who leaned against the body and smoked. Ye Chenyu looked at the unbelievable Chen Yu with deep eyes and said with an evil smile: "you don''t care how I got here. Anyway, you lost!" Chen Yu pulled at the corners of her mouth, looked back at her way, and tightened her eyebrows She was sure that there was only one way from there. How did ye Chenyu get there before her?! "Hey," said Ye Chenyu, looking at Chen Yu and smiling more deeply, "isn''t it just to buy a drink? Isn''t it so unbearable to lose?" "Who can''t afford to lose?" Chen Shuo sniffed coldly, and his mouth fell gently. Finally, he said coldly, "see you in blues." Turn around and leave by herself "Chen Chen, do you really want to know how I arrived before you?" Ye Chenyu looked at Chen''s back and asked with a smile. Chapter 1043 Chen Yu turned to look at Ye Chenyu. "If I say I want to know..." she asked with a smile. "Will you say... Well, I won''t tell you?" "Why, do you know me so well?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. "You usually don''t study me less, do you?" Chen Yu felt a strange emotion at the bottom of his eyes and said coldly, "who will know you if there''s something wrong?" "Oh..." Ye Chenyu nodded, suddenly. "I thought as a leader, in order to understand the situation of the following teams, you would study them specifically?!" Ye Chenyu raised one side of his mouth, looked at Chen with deep eyes and said, "it turns out that not every leader does this!" "..." Chen Yu pulled out uncontrollably from the corner of his mouth. He must have done it on purpose! If she said she understood, ye Chenyu would say that she was particularly concerned about him. Did she have any thoughts? If she said she didn''t understand, he would refute her with his work In short, this is a pit! Chen Yu didn''t say anything more. He looked back and got into the car, ignoring Ye Chenyu. With a ''whoosh'', the car almost drove away close to his body "Covered with thorns!" Ye Chenyu chuckled and got on the bus. Start the car and leave. There was a piece of soil falling from the fender at the original parking position of Ye Chenyu''s car If Chen yuhou left, I''m afraid he would guess that ye Chenyu didn''t go from the road at all, but from a nearby path. Compared with the familiarity of Los Angeles, I''m afraid Ye Chenyu is the second in the police station, and no one dares to be the first. He''s been undercover for so many years! Blues. When ye Chenyu arrived, Chen Yu had only a glass of water in front of him. "Hey, you''re not going to come here and buy me water, are you?" Ye Chenyu said and sat down opposite. Chen Yu raised her eyebrows. "When looking for wine that day, she found that President Gu had a lot of hidden things..." she smiled at the corners of her mouth, "I invite you to get the wine!" "You go..." "Can''t get in!" Chen Chen''s face is a little dark. Ye Chenyu suddenly had deep eyes, slightly raised his body and bent over Chen Yu. Chen Chen subconsciously leaned back, but ye Chenyu held a small number with one hand, and his body pressed forward more and more Chen Yu frowned and leaned against the back of the sofa. "Why don''t you marry me..." Ye Chenyu obviously joked. "In this way, you can enter the wine cellar at will." "Ye Chenyu, if you take advantage of me again, believe me or not..." "Press me here again?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. The evil cult didn''t pay attention to Chen Yu''s warning at all, "take advantage of the advantage with practical action?!" "Teng" once, Chen''s face turned red uncontrollably. "Ye, Chen, Yu!" The name was called out by Chen Yu gnashing his teeth. Chen Yu stood up deeply, but Chen Yu didn''t move his eyes together Chen Yu was embarrassed to be seen through by Ye Chenyu''s sight. He clenched his hand and wanted to refuse. However, it is estimated that she refused, and ye Chenyu could use some words to stimulate her to pick up wine together. Finally, she simply gave up and got up. "You seemed very angry at that time?" Ye Chenyu studied with a bottle of wine in his hand. Through the lattice of the wine cellar, he looked at Chen Yu who chose the wine opposite. Chen Yu''s action obviously stagnated, but it was only fleeting. "No..." "Oh, just out of control for a while." Ye Chenyu put down the wine bottle and took the next one. Chen Yu frowned, "Ye Chenyu, what are you trying to say?" "From the first action to real CS," Ye Chenyu leaned lazily on the wine cabinet. "You''re so calm that you don''t look like a woman." Women are often very emotional, which is why there are few women on the front line in such a dangerous industry. But Chen Chen is different. She is calm and can even turn the world around in times of danger At that time, there were only a few human traffickers, but she was obviously not calm, but lost her mind. Deep and evil eyes almost see through Chen Yu. She hates this feeling, but she finds... She can''t really hate Ye Chenyu. "Most hate human traffickers..." Chen Shuo coldly put down his words, took down a wine, turned and walked outside the wine cellar. Ye Chenyu slowly stood up, a pair of eyes looking through, crossed a strange emotion. Just now he didn''t read the wrong words... When Chen Yu said his words, there was obvious pain on his face?! Ye Chenyu pondered a little, turned and went out of the wine cellar "What was the most unforgettable thing when you were a child?" Chen Kai opened the wine, took the glass and poured the wine. It seemed that he was just talking to break the silence and talk casually. "Me?" Ye Chenyu took the glass and leaned slowly on the sofa. He looked at Chen Yu with deep eyes and said, "I''m most afraid of being found." "Huh?" Chen Yu frowned incomprehensibly. Ye Chenyu smiled, his eyes dropped slightly on the red wine, and his hands shook gently, "I''m an illegitimate son..." Chen Yu was surprised, not only because of the word "illegitimate child", but also because ye Chenyu said it so casually. "At that time, the mood was very complicated," Ye Chenyu raised his eyes, and the corner of his mouth was always the ruffian smile. "I especially hope my father came to see me, and I''m afraid he came too hard and was found." Ye Chenyu raised his hand and sipped the red wine. "I guess I can do undercover because I have practiced the hardness of my will since I was young because I was afraid of being found." It seems like self mockery, but people can''t hear a little pressure. "Have you ever hated your parents?" Chen asked. Ye Chenyu tilted his head to ponder and shook his head. "From childhood to adulthood, my parents didn''t teach me what emotion ''hate'' is." Ye Chenyu shrugged. "Life is so little and there are so many emotions. Why do you work hard and torture others?" A rhetorical question made Chen Yu silent. Ye Chenyu raised his glass and drank the wine in one gulp. After watching the soft light fall on the glass, his sight became deeper and deeper. "However, there is a very happy thing recently..." Ye Chenyu put down his glass and poured the wine himself. "I''m not an illegitimate student now!" "Your father and mother are together?" Chen asked subconsciously. Ye Chenyu raised his eyes and shook his head, "Dad died..." After a pause, he sat up and said, "I met my aunt''s son. I''m very happy. He didn''t spend time on hate!" Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu quietly. Different from the ruffian evil in ordinary days, he was obviously happy from his heart at the moment. That''s nice Chen Yu found that because ye Chenyu was so comfortable, she suddenly envied. "And you?" Ye Chenyu suddenly asked. "Huh?" Chen Yu has some doubts about his thoughts. "What was unforgettable when you were a child?" Ye Chenyu''s eyes gradually deepened, "or... Why do you hate human traffickers so much?" Chapter 1044 At the moment when ye Chenyu asked, Chen Yu suddenly tightened his hand holding the goblet I don''t know if it''s too hard or why. At the same time when he heard the "click", Chen Chen''s originally frozen thoughts were sucked back with a "hiss" and woke up. The bright red liquid spread between his fingers. Chen Yu had no time to think about the pain. The goblet in his hand was up and down and had been held by Ye Chenyu. "Gently let go..." Ye Chenyu''s voice was slightly dignified with a trace of anger. Chen Yu gave him a dull look and didn''t move. Ye Chenyu also looked at her and sighed, "the cup is cracked." Chen Yu suddenly came over. She looked down at her hand... Looking at the scarlet blood, she slowly released her hand. After ye Chenyu handled the cup, his expression also restrained the evil spirit and said, "do you have to do something here?" But the blame fell. Ye Chenyu went to get the medical box and came back. "Sorry..." Chen Chen watched Ye Chenyu deal with the scratches on her palm and pulled off the corners of her mouth. Ye Chenyu didn''t speak. He just looked at Chen Yu and continued to move in his hand. There was a trace of embarrassment in the atmosphere, but even so, neither of the two held back and didn''t speak first. After dealing with the wound, ye Chenyu went to pour Chen Yu a glass of water, "don''t drink." "There are many injuries on the body. It doesn''t matter." Chen Yu''s voice was tired and had no previous arrogance. Ye Chenyu looked at her quietly. After a while, he slowly opened his mouth: "do you know the fundamental difference between men and women?" Chen Yu looked up at Ye Chenyu and heard him say, "when women are vulnerable, they like to cover up with toughness. They always think they are strong. In fact, that illusion is vulnerable." As soon as Chen Yu heard this, he was filled with anger at the bottom of his eyes. "And men," Ye Chenyu ignored her emotions and just said the second half of the sentence, "they will only be a little more direct in dealing with such emotions." "What do you want to say?" Chen Yu''s voice was full of warning. Ye Chenyu sneered, "I don''t want to say anything, but whether you have anything to say..." The understatement fell into Chen Yu''s ear and was very uncomfortable. But at this moment, she didn''t know what was going on. In front of Ye Chenyu, who was not familiar at all, her heart was fragile and her mood fluctuated a little. Silence. Chen Yu didn''t speak, and ye Chenyu didn''t say anything. Ye Yu''s insight into people''s hearts is doomed From the first sight of this domineering woman, he didn''t really see her as strong. From the field, when she broke her ankle and was still holding on, he was sure that all the strength of this woman was used to cover up her inner vulnerability. And today At that time, she lost her mind and obviously gave him an answer in some direction. Because of their silence, the atmosphere gradually became dignified. And in such an atmosphere, it is full of sadness Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu and could clearly see the tangle and pain on her face. It was as if something had clamped her down and made her unable to break free. "Before my fourth birthday..." Chen Yu covered his forehead with his fingers and said in a hoarse voice, "I was taken away by traffickers." Although it has been roughly guessed, ye Chenyu was stunned when she said it herself. Because of this sentence, Chen Chen leaned back on the sofa and looked complex and indescribable. "Mom said to buy me ice cream... As soon as she turned around, I was taken away..." Ye Chenyu frowned. Chen Yu''s nose became uncontrollably sour. Her red eyes turned her head, "I shouted desperately, but everyone was just watching, and no one came up to help..." Ye Chenyu was suddenly dignified. "Mom asked everyone to help her, but she didn''t!" Chen Yu closed his eyes and was obviously at a loss because of the original scene. "There was no one... Everyone looked on coldly." The human feelings of society are cold and warm. No one will mind his own business for a long time. Even if some people want to manage, they don''t have that ability... They finally flinch. In fact, if people crowd around traffickers who want to take their children and delay time, there will always be variables. "I was taken away like this..." Chen Yu''s voice has overflowed uncontrollable sadness, "looking at my mother because of chasing..." Her voice could not continue. The dense water mist at the bottom of her eyes had blurred her sight, and her memory seemed to be pulled back to the beginning in an instant. Chen Yu leaned over, palms supporting his forehead, tears falling uncontrollably Ye Chenyu had some regrets and forced Chen Yu to say what was on his mind. Everyone has something he can''t face and resist. Everyone has the right to be vulnerable. "You don''t know..." Chen Shu''s hands were out of control and didn''t know how to place them. She looked at Ye Chenyu in despair. "I was taken to the car. At that moment... What was my mood when I watched my mother being hit and fly by a speeding car because of chasing?" Ye Chenyu''s pupils expanded in an instant. He never thought it would be like this "I''m not four years old!" Chen chuckled, "I should have thought about wearing beautiful skirts, buying beautiful hairpins and eating ice cream every day..." Ye Chenyu''s eyebrows have been locked up. He can''t help feeling distressed when he looks at the painful Chen Yu. Mrs. Chen is alive, so he doesn''t worry about the unpredictable damage caused by that scene. But what he didn''t expect was the follow-up development of this matter. "Human traffickers have never committed crimes alone..." Chen wiped the tears from his face. "Just, you can''t imagine how big that gang is!" "The 629 major cases that shocked the whole country?" Ye Chenyu asked softly. Chen Yu closed his eyes, squeezed out the tears that filled his eyes and wet his cheeks again. Ye Chenyu''s pupil was already at its maximum because of consternation. When it gradually closed, his breath was unstable. He studied this case when he was in the police academy. The original human trafficker group was not to sell children at all Is to send these children abroad for drug test. The night before being transported away, the undercover cooperated with the armed police, anti drug police and other relevant departments to solve the case. Death and injury are inevitable However, the death of one person was counted as special merit! A child was not rescued, girl... Because she was taken away first to make a "sample" of the transaction! No one knows what the situation was like at that time. However, when the cooperation personnel arrived, there were deaths and injuries everywhere, and the girl stood beside the man with blood all over, as if she had been scared silly. The final forensic report surprised everyone What kind of situation supported the policeman to protect the child when his body could not bear the injury for a long time?! "So... Are you the girl who was rescued at last?" Ye Chenyu''s shock at the bottom of his eyes was beyond words. Chapter 1045 Chen Chen leaned weakly on the back of the sofa, put his head on the top, dizzy with tears, and looked at the small spotlight above without focus Time is still, and the wind at night is "whistling", just like ghosts seducing ghosts. "Be... Strong... Know... Know... Know?" Xiao Chen is covered with blood, and his delicate face is filthy. Except for the twinkling eyes in the dark, as if they were like sculpture. "Come on..." "Alert!" "Fortify and check whether there is a living mouth..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The noisy voice can''t change back to Xiao Chen''s perception. She stood like that and looked at the person in front of her who had become unable to look directly because of the wound Don''t cry, don''t make noise! No expression! "Little sister..." Someone gently called her in his ear, but Xiao Chen couldn''t hear it. Her ears were filled with the voices of the dead in front of her Be strong! Don''t be afraid Face it bravely! Chen Chen, can you do it? You are called "promise". You will promise uncle Lin to do it, right?! Uncle Lin, I promise you! Xiao Chen said silently and turned around Looking at the armed police half squatting in front of him with armed paint on his face, he fainted in a few seconds. It''s been a week since I woke up. Little Chen Yu lost his previous willfulness and became silent without the arrogance of a little princess. When she woke up, she only asked her mother. When she knew that her mother was all right, she didn''t speak anymore. After two years of counseling, Chen Qishan didn''t spend a lot of money on any psychological treatment. It was not until he saw a police propaganda film on TV that little Chen gradually began to get better. And why she is silent and why she gets better... It seems that others know and don''t know. Ye Chenyu quietly listened to Chen Yu talking about the past, and instantly understood why this woman was so "strong"! She has a mission in her life. Uncle Lin''s responsibility to society and his ambition for the police career are being fulfilled by Chen Yu "Drink!" Ye Chenyu took another cup and poured the wine. "I''ll accompany you today. I won''t go back if I''m not drunk!" Chen Yu''s eyes were still lax. She looked at Ye Chenyu and pulled down the corners of her mouth, "it''s not my hand. Is it better for me to drink water today?" "It doesn''t matter whether his wound is inflamed or something..." Ye Chenyu picked his eyebrow. "Who didn''t come from the wound inflammation?!" Chen Yu unconsciously put on a shallow smile at the corner of his mouth, "can you care about anything because of the moment?" "That depends on what..." Ye Chenyu didn''t hide, "the principle won''t be broken." Ye Chenyu''s hand holding the wine cup stopped slightly, and a touch of emotion crossed the bottom of his eyes. In Li Xiaoyue, if he doesn''t care about the consequences, he won''t let Sad? There are still some?! However, such sadness... What does it count under the gain and loss? He lost a woman and won a brother. However, he took advantage of it. Besides, the woman became a sister-in-law. At best, it''s always a family, isn''t it? "I thought you were evil at everything!" Chen Yu smiled and raised his glass, then sipped the red wine, "I''ll treat you tonight. You can take out more bottles of Gu Zong''s wine." "His wine is not cheap..." Ye Chenyu said with a smile. "Chen''s salary is higher than mine, and it''s estimated that it''s not enough." "It''s all right. I can spell Dad!" Chen Yu learned from ye Chenyu, and the evil one also raised his eyebrows. As soon as ye Chenyu heard this, he smiled and drank wine. No matter how true or false the smile and lightness at this moment are, he is willing not to expose the woman who is strong to face Chen Yu... Promise! It''s just the difference between the front and back tones and l and n... well, it''s very small! "What''s your relationship with Gu Beichen?" Chen Yu poured the wine and asked casually. "I''m the illegitimate son of his little uncle..." Ye Chenyu said lightly, "I can go to the police school, which is also funded by him..." He shook the glass in his hand, "well, there''s an undercover task. You''d better soak it in his wine cellar to finish it." Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu in amazement. He was not only amazed at such an answer, but also at his attitude. "I should say..." Chen Yu said after a long time. "Is your heart big, or Gu Beichen''s heart big?" Ye Chenyu stared at Chen Yu with deep eyes. "We don''t care about anyone. We just care more about the people around us and what we can have than ordinary people..." It seems to be talking about yourself, and it seems to imply something with deep meaning. However, ye Chenyu''s tone is so casual that people won''t feel pressure Chen Yu is a smart man. Ye Chenyu knows very well. She knows what he is talking about?! "Cheers..." Chen zhe smiled and raised his glass. "Don''t get drunk or go home!" The sound of "Dang" and the sound of wine cup collision came With this collision, some things in the air gradually have a butterfly effect The night is very long, which makes people feel that it should be beautiful. The night is very short, which makes people feel better not to wake up at the moment when the morning comes "Ah!" A scream came, and then I heard the sound of a heavy object falling to the ground. Chen Yu suddenly opened his eyes and looked around. The strange environment was full of strange atmosphere Look around again. The layout is the pattern of the hotel. "Teng" for a moment, Chen Chen suddenly sat up and saw Ye Chenyu kneading his temples and sitting up from the ground. "Sleep, you can think of kicking..." Ye Chenyu said in a hoarse voice, "Chen, are you a woman?" Chen Chen''s expression was too complicated to be complicated. She looked at Ye Chenyu''s bare upper body and pulled from the corners of her mouth, "Ye Chenyu, what did you do to me last night?" Ye Chenyu put down his hand and sat on the ground. He looked at Chen Yu with a funny face and asked, "what did I do to you? Why don''t you want to? What did you do to me?" Chen Yu was stunned by Ye Chenyu''s rhetorical question. She tried to recall what happened last night, but her mind was broken and had no impression at all. "What did I do to you?" Chen Yu asked instinctively. Ye Chenyu hooked the corners of his mouth with evil charm and deep meaning, and wanted to get up on the ground "Don''t move!" Chen Yu shouted in horror. Ye Chenyu froze, looked at Chen Yu''s resistance, looked at his bare upper body, and knew in his heart He didn''t say he was still wearing his pants and simply sat back on the ground. Chen Yu rarely looks like a little woman. His face is red and hot. This woman is usually very smart. Why is she stupid now?! She''s still dressed herself. Can he do it every other time? Looking at Chen Yu''s unpredictable face, ye Chenyu scratched a touch of evil charm at the bottom of his eyes and slowly opened his mouth: "you pressed me last night... Just pulled my belt!" Chapter 1046 Chen Yu''s eyes widened and his mouth opened slightly. He was completely frightened by Ye Chenyu''s words. "How is that possible?!" Chen Yu frowned and asked foolishly. Ye Chenyu smiled at the corners of his mouth and retreated from his cold and strong appearance. At present, Chen Yu is quite Well, cute! "Why not?" Ye Chenyu asked, "why don''t I get up and have a look..." "No!" Chen Yu''s face changed with fear. Her breathing gradually became not smooth, and her face turned red in an instant She tried to recall what happened last night, but the memory just stayed when she shouted Ye Chenyu to Gu Beichen''s wine cellar and took out a lot of precious wine. Then, two people, one for you and one for me Then... There will be no then! "I really..." Chen Zhen endured the tumbling emotion in his heart, smiled at the corners of his mouth, and asked with a tangled look on his pretty face, "what have you really done to you?" "Otherwise?" Ye Chenyu continued to ask. From beginning to end, he didn''t really say an answer, completely guiding Chen to think for himself. In fact, he was curious. How would this woman deal with such a situation? Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu and didn''t respond for a long time, as if he was thinking about something. After a while, she said calmly, "although I slept with you, it was me who suffered..." Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu, who was seriously analyzing, and suddenly wanted to laugh. "Well, I won''t sleep with you for nothing..." Chen said, his face redder, which has a little coldness and arrogance on weekdays. Ye Chenyu guessed what Chen Yu would say next. He simply supported the bed with his arms and his chin on the back of his hands, waiting for him. According to Chen Yu''s temperament, it is estimated that he should be "responsible for him" or something. Well, if she really said that, would he agree? Anyway, he is single, his mother lacks a daughter-in-law, and this woman is a rich woman. She looks very good... She meets the requirements. Why don''t you just make do? Recently, because he has no daughter-in-law, his mother''s love for Shaochen and Xiaoyue has obviously surpassed him Even, the attitude towards him is that he doesn''t even have a daughter-in-law and has the face to go home for dinner?! Ye Chenyu''s mind was running rapidly. When he thought of the end, he thought it was more and more pleasant to look at Chen Yu. Chen Yu''s face was finally calmed down a little by herself. She thought to herself that she would show her momentum. She picked her chin slightly, pulled the bag placed on the bedside table, and took out her wallet In Ye Chenyu''s doubt, he took out a stack of big bills! "You''re in good shape, although I''m drunk and don''t know what my ability looks like..." Chen Chen put the money in front of Ye Chenyu, "well, I''ll give you three times the market price!" Ye Chenyu frowned slightly at the thick pile of money in front of him, and then looked at Chen Yu. There was obvious embarrassment on Chen Yu''s face, "that... That''s it, we all think today''s thing doesn''t exist!" As soon as she wrapped the quilt, she got up, grabbed the clothes on the ground and ran to the bathroom Because the movement was smooth and big, the money originally put on the quilt suddenly floated like the rain of flowers all over the sky Ye Chenyu smiled. He still sat on the ground and didn''t move. He didn''t care about the flying and falling money. He just stood up after looking at Chen Yu deeply into the bathroom. Chen Shu leaned against the bathroom door and gasped. Her face is red and like cooked shrimps. She doesn''t have to touch it, but she can feel it strongly. God What did she do last night? What did you just say? She was drunk and disorderly. Forget it. She also dumped money to Ye Chenyu. Chen Chen''s eyes closed, and she could not make complaints about her calmness. "I really want to give myself a capital praise..." Chen Yu whispered a self contemptuous whisper, stood up and walked in. Suddenly! Chen Yu suddenly stopped She glanced at the mirror on the washstand, flapped her eyelashes twice, and suddenly opened the wrapped quilt. I saw myself wearing bottomed suspenders and shorts. What happened? Chen Yu looked in the mirror again. Except for some scars left by training, there was no trace of love In his mind, he organized the conversation with Ye Chenyu in an instant. Until this moment, Chen Yu suddenly found out what a disgraceful thing she had done under the guidance of Ye Chenyu''s words. "Ye, Chen, Yu!" Chen Chen is gnashing his teeth. Every word is squeezed out of his teeth. Ye Chenyu, who had just left the hotel, said "a sneeze" and felt a chill coming from all directions, which was strange. Looking around, ye Chenyu frowned. However, he didn''t think much, just went to the opposite blues and drove away Chen Chen gnashed his teeth in the bathroom for a while, put on his clothes and opened the bathroom door, "Ye Chenyu..." As soon as she shouted, she saw that there was no one in the room, and the money scattered before was pressed on a belt. Chen Yu walked over with a post it note on it. "You imagined everything, and it''s true that I said you pressed me and smoked my belt... Well, I''m still professional. If you don''t sleep, take your money. Obviously, I don''t have professional ethics. Why don''t you give it to me next time you sleep?" The words full of ruffian breath made Chen Yu''s face change again and again. In the end, the originally angry face turned red because of Ye Chenyu''s last words. "Ye Chenyu, you''re dead!" Chen Chen is gnashing his teeth, but his face is getting redder and redder uncontrollably. Ye Chenyu drove and sneezed again. Frown slightly. I didn''t catch a cold last night because I didn''t have a quilt cover, did I?! No! Ye Chenyu left the corner of his mouth and ignored it. He continued to drive back to his mother''s villa. "Smelly boy, didn''t you say you came back to sleep last night?" As soon as mother ye saw that ye Chenyu came back, she began to complain, "I made my breakfast ready and found that you didn''t come back." "Haven''t you come back for breakfast?" Ye Chenyu changed his shoes with a smile. "No more..." "Ah?" Mother Ye smiled, "in the morning, Shaochen and Xiaoyue went to the neighborhood to collect evidence of the case, so they stopped by for breakfast." "..." Ye Chenyu twitched at the corner of his mouth, "Mom, how do I feel? I''m out of favor?" "If you don''t come back to eat, you won''t allow Shaochen to eat them?" Mother Ye looked proud, "besides, who knows if you can come back?" Ye Chenyu sighed, shook his head, and asked with a "wronged" face, "is there any food for me to eat?" "Do you want noodles?" Mother ye asked whether she was willing to give up her son. "Just eat..." Mother Ye smiled and turned to the kitchen. In due time, ye Chenyu''s mobile phone rang Ye Chenyu picked up his eyes and picked it up. Wang Qiang''s voice came from the phone: "come to the bureau!" Chapter 1047 "Huh?" Ye Chenyu rubbed his forehead. "Uncle Qiang, what''s the matter?" "Come and know..." Wang Qiang''s voice was obviously dignified, "as soon as possible!" Ye Chenyu answered, hung up the phone and shouted to the kitchen, "Mom, I''m going to the Bureau. I can''t face..." "It''ll be ready soon. Can''t you go there after eating?" Mother Ye frowned and came out. Ye Chenyu looked at the time and thought about it. Then he said with a ruffian smile, "it''s OK!" Mother Ye stared at Ye Chenyu angrily, muttered discontentedly, and turned to the bottom of the kitchen. Marinated seeds are ready-made. Mother Ye has quick hands and feet. In less than ten minutes, a bowl of fragrant marinated noodles and a small dish of cucumber were brought to Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu ''sizzled'' his noodles and ate them very delicious. "There may be a task..." Ye Chenyu said while eating. Mother Ye sat opposite and sighed quietly, but she didn''t show much on her face, "well, you should be careful anyway..." "Yes." Ye Chenyu answered, looked up at the opposite mother ye and said with a smile, "tut Tut, with Shaochen, I care about me so perfunctorily." "Ghost, which eye of yours sees me perfunctory?" Mother Ye stared obliquely, "I''m so big and I''ve learned to be jealous!" Ye Chenyu fished the noodles and took a big bite. He couldn''t tell which one he saw With that, he flirted and winked at mother Ye. Suddenly, mother Ye was amused by him "Don''t just think about work," mother Ye sighed suddenly. "Shaochen and Xiaoyue have got their licenses and are waiting for the wedding in the autumn... I can''t even see the shadow of your girlfriend." "Woman, I''ll find you one later." Ye Chenyu said with a smile. Mother Ye stared again angrily, "what do you mean to find me one?" "Well, it''s to find you a daughter-in-law..." Mother Ye smiled, "you''re good at speaking." "Mom, I''ll tell you... I''m powerless!" As ye Chenyu ate cucumbers, the crisp sound came and said, "if I work hard, I''m sure I can''t hold a wedding with Shaochen!" "Well, I''ll wait for you to make efforts..." mother Ye is too lazy to talk to Ye Chenyu, "I''ll see when you can save me worry." "Fast, fast..." Ye Chenyu said casually, ''sizzling'' drank the brine soup and got up, "I''m leaving. First go to the bureau to see the situation. I''m calling you." "Yes." Ye''s mother answered and sent Ye Chenyu out. She was worried about being a mother at the bottom of her eyes. With a deep sigh, mother Ye looked at the car that ye Chenyu left and whispered, "I really want to see you marry with Shaochen and turn back... Your father can be happy, too." ¡­¡­ General Administration. Wang Qiang stood in front of the window with his back and looked at the on duty vehicles in and out of the yard and the personnel in police uniforms. "Dong Dong!" When the knock came, Wang Qiang turned and said, "come in." Ye Chenyu pushed the door and came in, "Uncle Qiang..." He said hello, came forward to the desk, took the cigarette placed on it, took out a cigarette and lit it. "Let you as soon as possible, but you delayed for nearly two hours?" Wang Qiang''s face is a little dark. Ye Chenyu took the ashtray and sat down. "I''m at my mother''s and I''m off today... You have to let me get up and come over?" Wang Qiang stared coldly, "just now your voice, it''s not that you haven''t got up yet." Ye Chenyu grinned and didn''t explain, "what''s the hurry to ask me to come here?" Wang Qiang handed a file bag to Ye Chenyu. He opened it at will and took it out After roughly scanning the information, ye Chenyu frowned, "what''s the situation?" "This is the second suspected Interpol group." Wang Qiang sat down in his chair, "and the mastermind behind the scenes is likely to be McGrady who didn''t catch him that year." Ye Chenyu extinguished the smoke and his sight fell on the Archives again "You were in the police academy and have been studying the case of the wind puppet group. At present, you are also the most suitable person to lead the team." Wang Qiang sighed, "let me ask you what you mean. It''s up to you this time." "What do you mean?" Ye Chenyu frowned. Wang Qiang leaned back in his chair. "You''ve been undercover for so many years. It''s not easy to be clean. I don''t really want you to go..." Ye Chenyu looked at Uncle Qiang quietly. After a while, he smiled at the corners of his mouth. "Then you should not call me." "Chenyu, there are some things that you and I know. There''s no way!" Ye Chenyu was silent. "Besides, I know you are interested in this case..." "I''m afraid someone is more interested." Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. Wang Qiang frowned slightly, his eyes crossed and looked at Ye Chenyu in surprise, but he disappeared again in an instant. Only a few big leaders know about Chen Yu. Chen Yu and Chen Yu have no contact again. I heard that they got stuck as soon as they met... I shouldn''t know. Wang Qiang pretended not to understand, but said, "it''s urgent. It''s decided to organize a group today and start tomorrow." After a pause, his tone became dignified. "So, you need to decide now." "I choose the group." Ye Chenyu said. Wang Qiang sighed. Ye Chenyu''s words have shown that he led the team In fact, his heart is complex. I hope he leads the team, but I hope he refuses. "OK." Wang Qiang nodded. Ye Chenyu looked down again and his sight fell on a photo in the data The photos are very blurred. At first glance, they are taken with extremely poor light and advanced equipment. There are more than a dozen children of different sizes inside, tied with chains. The scene makes people can''t bear to look directly at them. "Dong Dong!" The sound of a hurried knock on the door suddenly startled Ye Chenyu''s thoughts. "Come in..." As Wang Qiang''s words fell, the door of the office was pushed open and Chen Yu came in with great strength. She first looked at Ye Chenyu, and her eyes flashed surprise, and then a touch of complex emotion flashed. "Why did Xiao Yu come here?!" "Wang Ju," Chen Shu said in a sonorous voice without squinting. "I heard that there was a case to take over. I asked for orders automatically!" Wang Qiang stared deeply at Chen Yu and said with complex eyes, "this case has been handed over to Chenyu and will also be in the charge of the special police." "Wang Bureau, I request and also believe that I am responsible for this case..." Chen looked at Wang Qiang and stressed again, "no one in Los Angeles is more suitable for and understand this case than me." "The Bureau has decided..." Wang Qiang said calmly, and his tone was indeed indisputable. "Wang Bureau..." "Wang Ju," Ye Chenyu said at the right time, interrupting Chen Yu''s words, "the first person I need in the action team..." he looked at Chen Yu, "just her!" Chapter 1048 While ye Chenyu''s words fell, Wang Qiang and Chen Yu looked at him one after another Ye Chenyu still looked lazy and just put the file bag on the table. "This past group is to cooperate with Interpol. In terms of personnel allocation, I need to have enough ability and tacit understanding." "When did you have a tacit understanding with Chen?" Wang Qiang frowned, "how long have you known him? Even when have you cooperated except the first day?" After a series of questions, Wang Qiang''s eyes looking at Ye Chenyu were all warnings. Ye Chenyu smiled and ignored Wang Qiang, but looked at Chen Yu. Chen Shuo''s mouth, not the embarrassment and anger in the morning Yes, just a request. "Who says you have to cooperate many times to have a tacit understanding?" Ye Chenyu smiled deeper and looked back at Wang Qiang. "Men and women match, so you''re not tired to work!" "Chenyu!" Wang Qiang''s voice has sunk. He knew Ye Chenyu''s evil spirit. After all, when ye Chenyu was undercover, he was alone on the line, and no one knew better than him. However, he also knows Chen''s temperament. If it wasn''t the case at the moment, I''m afraid Xiaoyu would be able to deal with Ye Chenyu''s subordinate. "Wang Bureau," Ye Chenyu changed his name, "I have no problem taking this, on the condition that... I want to choose my own people." This was discussed before Chen came. "If not, find someone else..." Ye Chenyu got up in an evil spirit, "I''ll go first if it''s all right. Today I''m a rare holiday. I''ve been delayed for half a day." Wang Qiang''s face is too dark to describe. Chen Yu even frowned. Unexpectedly, ye Chenyu was so... Casual. In front of Wang Bureau, there is no concept of superiors and subordinates at all. Chen Yu is not used to it, but Wang Qiang knows very well Ye Chenyu said this. It''s not a threat or anything. It''s just that he has his guidelines and doesn''t like too much interference from others. "Stop!" Wang Qiang held his breath and drank coldly. Then he looked at Chen Yu, "Xiao Yu, you go out first." As ye Chenyu turned around, Chen Ying walked out When she passed Ye Chenyu''s side, her steps stopped. She looked at him with complex emotions in her eyes, and then lifted her step, opened the door of the office and left. Ye Chenyu went to his desk again and sat down. He lit the cigarette on the desk again. "Chen Yu, Chen Yu can''t act with you." Wang Qiang said earnestly. Ye Chenyu lowered his eyes, took a cigarette and talked about the ash, "I know about Chen Bureau..." "Huh?" Wang Qiang was a little stunned. Ye Chenyu raised his eyes and looked calm. "Unfortunately, I knew it last night." "..." Wang Qiang twitched at the corners of his mouth, "then you should know that she can''t go." "Why?" Ye Chenyu asked jokingly. Wang Qiang sank his face again. "This arrest operation is very dangerous. You know very well that although Chen Yu is very calm on weekdays, it is difficult to ensure that she will not lose her calm when she is against macdow?" Such a small child, a rich family, should have developed a naughty and willful little princess, or a proud queen But now the scar marks left by training on her body are exposed, which can scare her peers from approaching. But why all this? At the beginning, Lin Xiangping died so tragically in front of her in order to save her It is the biggest turning point in life to put it on anyone. "I can''t promise." Ye Chenyu answered casually. When Wang Qiang heard this, he almost didn''t spit blood. "Then you still..." "But I still choose her." Ye Chenyu lazily folded his legs and said, "moreover, even if she doesn''t come to you, I will choose her when I go back to choose someone." Wang Qiang''s face is too dark to describe. "Uncle Qiang, it''s very simple..." Ye Chenyu picked his eyes and tail with an evil smile. "Chen Yu has strong ability, a top student in criminal psychology, a master of fighting... And rich experience in jungle and field survival." After a pause, ye Chenyu took a breath of smoke and spit out the smoke before he continued: "such a person is too suitable for this action..." He flicked the cigarette ash. "Besides, if you want to untie this knot, you can only participate in this operation." "What if..." "No chance!" Ye Chenyu said calmly, "I don''t allow one in case." Wang Qiang''s voice sank, "you said you can''t guarantee it!" Ye Chenyu smiled and smiled as brightly as the sun outside, "yes, I can''t guarantee..." "Ye Chenyu!" Three words, full of uncontrollable anger. Wang Qiang was finally irritated by Ye Chenyu, who was familiar with his temperament. Chen Yu outside could hear the loud voice of warning anger. Ye Chenyu was unmoved, but said, "I can''t guarantee that she won''t lose her calmness, but... With this person and officer Wang''s faith, she can understand what she needs to do!" Words, finally fell sonorous and powerful, people can''t refute. There was a dead silence in the office. No matter Wang Qiang or Ye Chenyu, they didn''t speak again in the end. Chen Yu waited outside nervously and anxiously. There were passing police officers who were absent-minded to greet her. She doesn''t know how heavy Ye Chenyu is. She just heard from Lu bureau that he has a way of doing things. As long as he takes over the case, there are few cases that can''t be solved. The key is just to control the casualty rate Chen Yu only felt that his heart became depressed because of tension and anxiety, and his breathing became short. Suddenly The door of the office was suddenly opened. Chen Yu was stunned and saw Ye Chenyu come out. "How''s it going?" Chen Yu forgot his identity and calmness and hurriedly asked. Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu and said, "come with me." He didn''t say much, so he turned and walked to the elevator Chen Yu hurried forward and removed her usual coldness and arrogance. At this moment, she was anxious and showed the posture of a little woman. "Ye Chenyu..." But when ye Chenyu came down the stairs downstairs of the General Administration, he didn''t say a word, and Chen was in a hurry. Ye Chenyu said without looking back: "there are five people on this trip. You and Lu Xiaowei of the criminal investigation team will report to the special police team in the afternoon." Chen Yu''s footsteps stopped, and then his eyes burst into an urgent light, "good!" Ye Chenyu opened the door and looked back at Chen Yu. The evil spirit blinked with her and made a noise with her tongue. Then the evil spirit got on the car with a smile. Chen Yu was stunned. Watching Ye Chenyu drive away, he reacted "Bitch!" Chen Yu was annoyed, "don''t you think you can''t live without flirting?" "Xiao Yu, who molested you?" The voice of laughing came from behind, "in this police station, can anyone flirt with our overlord flower?!" Chapter 1049 Chen Yu turned around and saw Lu Ju coming down the stairs. The corners of his mouth twitched uncontrollably. "Lu Bureau..." Chen Yu smiled awkwardly, "no..." Lu Bureau looked at the gate. When he came out, he just saw a car passing through the back. He didn''t notice whose car it was. "Why did you come here today?" "Request task." Chen said. Lu Bureau frowned slightly, "what task do you want to go and need to apply in person?" Chen Shuo lowered the corner of his mouth and said, "about madder..." Lu Bureau immediately frowned and looked at Chen''s line of sight, which obviously became more and more serious. "Lu Bureau, I think I can." Chen said, "besides, I also have reasons to go." She owes uncle Lin justice. Uncle Lin won''t rest until Matt is caught. Lu Bureau sighed deeply, "it seems that you have applied?" Chen Yu nodded. "Now that you have decided to go, finish the task well!" Lu Ju heaved a sigh, "Xiao Hua, you go now... I have to be bored to death by your father." Chen Yu smiled, "Uncle Lu, you should understand my mood." Lu Ju nodded and didn''t say anything. He turned around and walked in the direction of his car with the driver. ¡­¡­ Ye Chenyu, look at the time. It''s almost twelve o''clock. At the right time, the intersection ahead was red. He stopped the car, took his mobile phone and prepared to call mother ye and said he would go back for lunch. But after pressing the number, it didn''t dial out Although his mother would be worried when he was on duty, it was like the last lunch when he went back for dinner. Ye Chenyu pressed out his mobile phone and put it aside. His sight fell on the countdown of red light seconds in front of him Waiting for the green light, ye Chenyu turned the intersection and drove in the direction of the special police team "Brother Yu," Qiao Rui looked at the file, "how to arrange the personnel?" "I, you, take Yang Jinyu." Ye Chenyu spoke calmly. "Just the three of us?!" Qiao Rui was stunned. "Didn''t you say five people?" "Chen Yu and Lu Xiaowei of the criminal investigation team..." "Poof!" Qiao Rui twitched at the corner of his mouth. "Lu Xiaowei is a computer expert. In the past, some equipment needed him, but why did he leave the bureau?" I''m still in the mood to joke with brother Yu and Chen Bureau on weekdays, but this action is always inconvenient for five people and a woman?! Besides, the first level of officials and universities crushed people, not to mention Chen Yu is still their direct leader. "I decided. Do you have an opinion?" Ye Chenyu asked with an eyebrow. Qiao Rui immediately shook his head, "no..." He grinned at the corners of his mouth, and it was obvious on his face that I said ''no''. That was my hypocrisy! "I''ll ask Yang Zi to prepare first..." Qiao Rui skimmed his lips, took the file and walked outside Ye Chenyu''s office. Walking to the door, Qiao Rui suddenly remembered something, stopped and turned around "I said brother Yu, is Chen Bureau pressing you this time, or are you pressing her?" Qiao Rui''s words were full of ambiguity. While the words fell, he also winked. Ye Chenyu smiled wickedly, and his voice was even more ruffian. He was like a hooligan: "you have to change your posture occasionally to find a cool point..." "Cow!" Qiao Rui raised his thumb and turned away with a comfortable smile under gossip Ye Chenyu lay lazily on his seat and looked out of the window... His eyes gradually became deep. This action was successful. He became the holy light and saved a woman''s heart that had been suppressed for many years. If it fails Ye Chenyu drooped his eyes and laughed at himself at the corners of his mouth. Fortunately, mom is not alone now. She is accompanied by Shaochen and Xiaoyue. She always wants to read. Thinking, ye Chenyu took his mobile phone and dialed Gu Beichen''s number. "Huh?" Gu Beichen''s low voice spilled over his thin lips. "I have a mission tomorrow." Gu Beichen''s hand to sign the document stagnated, and the eagle''s eyes became deep and bottomless. "It seems that the task is not simple." "Yes." Ye Chenyu answered. Facing Gu Beichen, he didn''t know how to cover up anything. Because it''s no use covering up. "Mom, take care of it." "No time." Gu Beichen said coldly, "I have a wife and son to take care of now..." Ye Chenyu twitched at the corner of his mouth, "Beichen, I''ll try my best to come back." "Yes." Gu Beichen has faintly answered. He got up and went to the window Looking at the rows of high-rise buildings, the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly, "Chenyu, you haven''t attended Shaochen''s wedding, as your brother!" "Yes..." Ye Chenyu smiled. "People are always dissatisfied. He admitted me, but I haven''t attended his wedding as my brother." Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Ye Chenyu heaved a long sigh. "I''ve gone to lunch... See you back." "See you back!" Gu Beichen answered and hung up. Some people are born on the edge of danger But that''s their life. Relatives and friends worry, but they can''t stop other people''s lives! ¡­¡­ The light piano sound is like a breeze blowing in the midsummer. It is gentle and comfortable, calming the anxious mood. Jian Mo stood at the kitchen door with the freshly squeezed juice, watching Su Junli and Jian Jie play with their four hands, and a smile filled the corners of his mouth. The sunlight penetrates the French window and falls on the white grand piano. The light reflected by it fascinates the human eye. Jane Mo always had the illusion that she was back in London With a dark sigh, Jane Mo drooped her eyes. Such a beautiful person, she failed, do not know what kind of woman, can have this luck. Jun Li is gentle. Just like his piano music, he amazed the years and gave birth to life. A song fell when Su Jun raised his last hand. "Uncle, this song, am I ok?" Jian Jie fanned his eyes, and Gu Beichen''s momentum became more and more on his small face. Su Junli nodded approvingly and put his arm on the piano, so he pretended to be sorry and said, "Hey, I feel sorry when I think you have to take over the emperor in the future. You can only hold a signing pen in your hand." Jane Jie smiled, "but why didn''t I see Uncle Li seriously abduct me?" "Well, I''m afraid president Gu will hang a sign at the door that I''m not allowed to enter..." Su Jun''s joking words immediately made Jian Jie ''ha ha'' laugh. J sat on the lazy sofa in front of the French window, pounding an old computer in his hand. The ground was full of parts. "Character... Determines the outcome." A sigh seemed to be casual... But Su Jun brushed a touch of astringency from the bottom of his eyes. "Drink juice..." Jane Mo opened her mouth at the right time. When she saw J looking at her, she stared quickly. J curled his lips and muttered with dissatisfaction: "it''s the same, I won''t let you say..." "Mommy," Jane Jie got off the piano stool, "are you going to deliver lunch to Daddy later?" "Not today..." Jane Mo just opened her mouth and thought of the braised meat aunt Luo was making. Suddenly, she just felt sick for a while. "Oh..." Jane Mo quickly covered her mouth, turned and ran to the bathroom Chapter 1050 Su Jun Li frowned slightly at Jian Mo''s hurried back, and a trace of doubt crossed his eyes. Jian Jie''s eyes also fanned. When his small mouth moved, it seemed as if he was pondering something "Eh, want to vomit?" J asked the question directly, "is there a problem?" The two lights of "Shua" shot at J with a CPU in his hand at the same time. Su Junli and Jian Jie both looked at him, looking a little complicated. "Why are you looking at me like that?" J glanced and was a little dissatisfied. "Doesn''t this woman vomit?" "It''s also possible that he ate something bad..." Jane Jie said with a small mouth, but the bottom of his eyes was filled with some emotion, which was extremely urgent. Su Junli didn''t speak, just walked to the bathroom "Vomit... Vomit..." Jane Mo was lying on the washing table and obviously looked very sad. "Foam?" Su Junli shouted, stepped in and helped her follow her back, trying to make her more comfortable. Jane Mo has been vomiting. She can''t continue to think about the reason why she vomited When she thought about it, she couldn''t help vomiting again! "Mommy, water!" Jane Jay poured a glass of water. "Thank you for the milk bag..." Jane Mo said weakly. There was a glimmer of hope on the small face of the reduced version of Gu Beichen. Jian Jie smiled and asked, "Mommy, shall I accompany you to the hospital?" "Huh?" Jane gargled with foam, feeling weak. Jane Jie''s mouth cracked. "You''re not feeling well. Daddy is busy. Of course, I''ll accompany you to the hospital." Su Junli and Jian Jie exchanged colors and suddenly knew what the little guy was thinking. In fact, since Xiao Yan left, everyone hopes that Jane Mo can have another baby. Men and women! Jane Mo was uncomfortable, because Jane Jie''s words suddenly stopped thinking She looked at Jian Jie and Su Junli. One of them was urgent, and the other was holding a gentle smile like a spring breeze. They couldn''t help but burst something in their heart J leaned with his arms around his chest at the door of the bathroom. After the baptism of College Students'' life, he showed a different vitality in the ink palace. "I''ve called Gu Beichen..." J picked his eyebrow and said, "I think he should be by your side whether he is ill or really pregnant!" Jian Jie frowned and glared at J angrily, "but what if he was ill?" J shrugged. "Let''s treat..." he got up and went out again. "In fact, the more people expect this kind of thing, the greater the pressure on Jian mo." Su Junli was in a state of bewilderment. Looking at the gloomy face of Jian Mo, several people went out. "Then don''t you think you say it so recklessly..." Su Jun smiled from the sound line. "Will it also cause a lot of people''s burden?" "Really?" J took a glass of juice and drank, "but I don''t like beating around the Bush... Isn''t it good to be direct?" Then he looked at Jane mo. "In fact, Jian Mo is not as fragile as you think..." J raised his eyebrow. "Sister, do you think I''m right?" J usually doesn''t call Jane mo ''sister'', but he calls and drinks his name directly. However, if you call occasionally, you are definitely suspected of being flattered Jane Mo gouged out her eyes J angrily. "I''m fragile. Who says I''m not fragile?" She said angrily and then smiled, "in fact, j is right..." "Bang..." Jian Mo''s words just fell, and j and Jian Jie both gave him a big disdain face. Su Jun left the corner of his mouth with a smile, looked at Jian Mo and said, "it''s good to see that you can face it easily." "I''ve checked before. I''m pregnant and have no pressure..." Jian Mo said. "I didn''t conceive before. Ah Chen is just worried about my body." Put down Xiao Yan''s business. In fact, as J said, she let many things go and relaxed. Gu Beichen came back soon. Of course, the person he was going to see ran aground because Jane might be pregnant. Huakang hospital, obstetrics and gynecology. Dr. Ge had just handed over his shift and was about to get off work when he heard that Gu Beichen arrived with Jane mo. "Dr. Ge, will you see it yourself?" Asked the head nurse. Dr. Ge smiled and nodded, "others can ignore it. I have to see it myself..." She said and had gone to the examination room. Gu Beichen and others waited outside and said they were normal, but when Jian Mo entered the examination room, it was estimated that everyone was nervous except J. "Do you want a brother or sister?" J asked lazily sitting in the waiting chair. Jane Jie thought, "you can..." He fanned his eyes and grinned. "But it''s better to be my sister." "Why?" J is curious. He didn''t have any good ideas about his family. Later, he followed Shi Shaoqin and didn''t need it at all. After knowing Jane Mo, and now living a normal life in college, J seems to be more and more curious about the word "home" Jian Jie leaned back on the chair, and his cute little face was full of laughter. "I''ll take the responsibility. If it''s a younger brother, I may have to share the responsibility... But if it''s a younger sister, I can be a little princess. How nice we all spoil her!" J frowned and thought. After a while, the corners of his mouth also involuntarily hooked and smiled and said, "what you said is quite reasonable..." J''s eyes twinkled with bright light, as if he could think of a little girl crying "Uncle" behind his ass. it must feel great. "Well, just have a girl!" Jane Jie couldn''t stand rolling her eyes. "Isn''t this what you can decide?" He tilted his lips, but obviously, he hoped so As a freshman and a junior, they talked about Jian Mosheng''s girl. Su Junli looked at them and smiled at them. It''s nice to have a feeling of expectation! With the arrival of a small life, the added happiness is infinite Time goes by with the inspection. Obviously, it is a normal speed, but it becomes very slow because of urgency and waiting. Compared with the outside, the examination room is full of warm breath. "Dr. Ge, how long have you been?" Jane Mo asked with a smile. "It''s been five weeks..." Dr. Ge looked at the B-ultrasound image and said with a smile, "this is not the first time for you. You need to pay attention. Don''t need me to say more?" Jane Mo nodded with a smile, took the image from Dr. Ge, and gently crossed her fingers... The joy in the bottom of her eyes infected the air around her. "Chen Shao knows, I''m afraid I''m so happy!" Dr. Ge joked. Jane Mo pasted the image map on her chest and felt her heartbeat. At the same time, the smile on her face deepened "I''ll tell him!" Jane Mo said, got up and opened the door of the examination room. J and Jian Jie stood up in an instant and hurried forward "Is there one?" J asked directly. Jane Mo just looked at Gu Beichen, didn''t say anything, just smiled That smile is full of hope and beauty! Chapter 1051 Gu Beichen''s ink pupil gradually becomes deep and bottomless. From the deepest place, it turns into joy. There is nothing to say, even, there is no need to say anything Gu Beichen took a small step forward and gently took Jian Mo into his arms, "Mo''er, it''s going to be hard for you in the next days..." The low and magnetic voice lost its calmness and trembled with a trace of excitement. The smile on the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth became more and more intense, "Mr. Gu, I''m afraid you''ll work harder than me next!" "I''d like to..." Gu Beichen gently tore and polished the top of Jian Mo''s hair. There was no way to describe the joy in the ink pupil. The little life he and Mo''er expected came again. This time, he gave everything... Just for her and the continuation of the unknown. Jane was pregnant again. Within an hour, the relevant personnel hardly knew. Everyone began to call, but whether it was Jian Mo or Gu Beichen, the phone couldn''t be called Finally, everyone began to bless from SMS and wechat. Li Xiaoyue: girl, why are you so good! Xiangwan: ah, sister Mo, how can you live for the existence that makes me a man can''t find... But I''m really happy for you. Mo Xiaoya: Mo Mo, what a coincidence? I just made sure I was pregnant yesterday, and you made sure today... How old are you? I have seven weeks. Shen Chu: woman, I really want to get pregnant... Alas, where is my man? Didn''t you say I''d meet my guy? You liar! Hum! I came to you after work Mother ye: Xiaomo, what do you want to eat in the future? Mother ye will make it for you! CEN Lanxi: Xiaomo, stop living in the villa and come back to the manor? Aunt LAN is here. I don''t go out. I have a caregiver around me! ¡­¡­ Messages filled Jian Mo''s eyes, and blessings filled her with happiness she had never had before. That is different from Gu Beichen''s love and other "Beichen, come back for dinner in the evening?" Gu Moyuan calls Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, who was smiling while looking at the text message over there, and answered. "Dad asked me to go back to dinner at night..." Gu Beichen said with Jian Mo in his arms after hanging up the phone. "Good!" Jane Mo put down her cell phone, "ah Chen, mom wants me to live in the manor... She said to pay attention to the first three months and take care of me there." "What do you think?" Gu Beichen consulted Jian Mo''s opinion. Jane Mo tilted her head and leaned on Gu Beichen''s shoulder. "J and milk bag are on holiday. Mom also wants to do something... In fact, it''s very good." Without the gratitude and resentment of the previous generation, cen Lanxi hopes to show more love to ah Chen She also wants a family, not polite, but a real family. "Not reluctantly?" Gu Beichen asked with deep eyes. "I won''t force......" Jane Mo shook her head, "and I hope baby......" she said, putting her hand gently on her abdomen, drooping her eyes and slowly saying the second half of the sentence, "... Came to this world with the expectation of all her family." Milk bag''s regret, Xiao Yan''s regret Baby, will you enjoy it all together? She thought that whether she was an independent milk bag from childhood or a little Yan who became a little angel, she would be happy. ¡­¡­ Mo palace. The setting sun fell on the vast sea with waves. Sunflower because the sun is about to be obliterated by the sea level, some lost slightly drooped "head". Shi Shaoqin stood at the edge of the flower bed with star in his arms and watched the little guy stubbornly insist on breaking the mature sunflower plate by himself. His beautiful face was holding a more and more warm smile. However, star''s strength is limited. After tossing for a long time, he didn''t get it down "Well..." Star clenched his teeth and still worked hard, but he still couldn''t get it off. "Yes!" Star''s angry little face wrinkled. Looking at Shi Shaoqin''s bright eyes, he was full of discontent because he couldn''t get it down. "Stone, help you first, and finally you come..." Shi Shaoqin asked softly, "OK?" Star tooted his mouth because he couldn''t get off the sunflower plate independently. He was unhappy on his pink and beautiful little face. Shi Shaoqin gently rubbed star''s small face with his fingers. "There are things that can be done in each stage... You can''t, but its toughness. You''re not strong enough to conquer now." Star still toots his mouth, and his black crystal eyes look at Shi Shaoqin motionless. "Stone will help you this year..." star smiled. "Next year, stone won''t help you. You need to finish it yourself." Star pursed his mouth and nodded reluctantly on his small face. Shi Shaoqin didn''t put down star, but used his other hand to get the sunflower plate. He didn''t let star finish the final process until there was only a little connection left The flower plate of sunflower is very big, and star can''t catch it When he was about to fall, he had put the flower plate into Shi Shaoqin''s arms, and his small hand was still holding the edge of the flower plate. The juice and the flower buds on the flower plate fell on Shi Shaoqin and soiled his clothes, but he didn''t mind at all. Just because of this moment, star''s eyes are full of hope that he can complete this thing independently next year "Qin Shao!" Someone came over. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and obviously disliked that the man had interrupted his intimate time with star. The man ''cluttered'' in his heart. While grinning secretly, he hardened his head and said, "just received the news from Los Angeles and said..." he swallowed uncontrollably because of the force on Shi Shaoqin, "said Jane Mo is pregnant." When did Shiqin look at him "This noon!" Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly. At the same time, his good-looking mouth overflowed with a deep smile. "An aunt is pregnant with a baby," Shi Shaoqin walked to the castle with star in his arms. "Shall we give her a gift?" "Good!" Star answered happily, holding the sunflower plate in his hand and never loosening it. ¡­¡­ The night in Los Angeles became beautiful in the eyes of everyone because Jane Mo was pregnant. In Gu''s manor, a group of people are eating happily and doing barbecue It felt like a big party called ''happiness''. "Walk?" Ye Chenyu looked at the barbecue crowd and said to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen nodded and they were walking in the manor "I didn''t tell my mother where to go," Ye Chenyu walked slowly with his hands in his pockets. "Before leaving, I can still hear that Jian Mo is pregnant and see that everyone doesn''t reject my mother... It''s good." "I heard about your mission..." Gu Beichen said faintly, "there is no accident. After you land, you will have some information for you." Ye Chenyu frowned slightly. "You have your principles," Gu Beichen stopped slowly, "but I always have to see my godfather who didn''t have a child come back..." Ye Chenyu frowned, and then looked at Gu Beichen in amazement. Chapter 1052 "Not everyone can be my child''s godfather..." Gu Beichen tilted his head and smiled at his thin lips. "If you don''t come back, you''ll lose money!" "That''s true..." Ye Chenyu smiled. "Just this time." Gu Beichen continued to lift his feet and walked forward. "People always have to think about it in order to make better efforts." Ye Chenyu was silent. Facing Gu Beichen, he always felt too easy to be seen through. Maybe it''s because I''ve known each other for too long. Or maybe There is always a confidant around you. You don''t need to hide anything in front of him. Footsteps came from behind. Gu Beichen and ye Chenyu both looked back and saw Mo Shaochen coming with three goblets and a bottle of red wine in his hand. "Have a drink?" Mo Shaochen said, looking at Ye Chenyu. "OK." Mo Shaochen smiled, handed the cup to Gu Beichen and ye Chenyu, and poured the wine. Three people, without saying anything, had a toast "I''ll go and see Mo''er," Gu Beichen said after Mo Shaochen''s eyes were slightly deep. "You talk." Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu watched Gu Beichen barbecue. They sat down on the bench beside the path. The night was just right, and the crescent moon in the ink sky was haloed with bright light, and the scattered stars twinkled. Mo Shaochen poured wine for the two people. While gently twisting the glass with his fingers, he slowly opened his mouth: "I heard you''re going to work tomorrow!" "Yes." Ye Chenyu answered faintly, and his face was always evil ruffian smile, which made people can''t see too much emotion at will. "Aunt, I will take care of..." "Yes." Ye Chenyu answered with a deepening smile. Mo Shaochen glanced at Ye Chenyu, "can you come back in time to attend my wedding?" Ye Chenyu was silent, slowly raised his hand and sipped the red wine. The mellow and fragrant liquor spread on the taste buds. Ye Chenyu only felt the position of his heart, with unspeakable joy and uneasiness. Xu is used to being an undercover. He always feels very strong. Beichen never intervenes in his case when he is on duty... Even if he knows the danger. But this time Beichen has inquired about the case and prepared materials without his consent. I''m afraid I feel something, or... I don''t want any accidents. "Try your best." Ye Chenyu spoke slowly after a long time. While the voice fell, he looked at Mo Shaochen with a sinister radian on one side of his mouth, "Alas, I''m afraid to see Xiao Yue marry you in a wedding dress. What should I do?" Mo Shaochen listened and smiled. "Although it''s a brother," he raised his eyes, "but you can only be sad..." Ye Chenyu nodded, "why don''t... I cheat a woman to get married later, and we''ll have a day?" "That''s what you said..." Mo Shaochen smiled and raised his cup. Ye Chenyu also raised his hand. With a bang, the glass collided gently under the night sky, making a crisp sound. "I said it!" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows, obviously joking. The two brothers smiled at each other and drank the wine in the cup. Joy continues, and beauty hides a trace of worry. ¡­¡­ Chen''s villa seems to be shrouded in something, which makes people unable to breathe. The bowl on the dining table was snapped by Chen Qishan. Chen Feng swallowed it secretly and secretly looked at Chen Yu opposite. There was also a trace of worry on his vibrant face. Xie Zhenru frowned anxiously and looked at Chen Yu. Then she gently put her hand on the back of Chen Qishan''s hand on the table, "Qishan..." Chen Qishan has a heavy nose and is very angry at first sight. "If Lao Lu didn''t call me, are you going to tell me when you leave tomorrow?" "No." Chen Yu said quietly, "I''ll leave you a note before I leave..." Elder sister Chen Feng: you''re so angry! Sure enough, Chen Qishan was so angry that he could hardly contain his anger. "I''ll call Lao Lu right now. You''re not allowed to go." "I must go!" Chen Yu''s voice remained calm. "No one has more reason to go this time than me!" "I said no!" Chen Yu looks at Chen Qishan, and the father and daughter confront each other like this. Obviously, no one will let him. "If you can tie me up tonight, I won''t go tomorrow..." Chen Yu made a long noise. After a cold word, he got up and walked upstairs. "Chen Yu, stop!" Chen Qishan "Teng" stood up, because his strength was too strong, and his chairs were overturned. Chen Yu just stopped when he stepped up the stairs, and his slender fingers clung to the handrail of the stairs. Because of too much force, the fingers gradually turned white. "Xiaoyu, mom knows what you think..." Xie Zhenru''s voice was slightly sour. "But this is not a children''s play. If you are emotional, not only yourself, but others will be hurt." In that scene, the child was robbed... Xie Zhenru clearly remembered. When the car hit her, at that moment, she didn''t think about her life and death, but Xiaoyu. If she wasn''t worried about her daughter, the doctor said she couldn''t get off the operating table. But also because of that time, she had a problem with her lumbar spine and could only be in a wheelchair These are nothing. When her daughter came back, she became silent and autistic. Later, it was not easy, but I just wanted to be a policeman She knows her daughter''s heart knot, because she knows that she has never opposed her daughter''s desire to be a policeman. But this time is different. "For uncle Lin," said Chen Yu, whose nose was already sore, his eyes were red, and his eyes were filled with mist. "I won''t allow myself not to be calm." She will catch Matt, not for personal revenge. She just doesn''t want more children to be hurt. "Dad," Chen Yu tilted his head slightly and looked at Chen Qishan angrily, "I know you''re worried about me..." Tears, uncontrolled overflow of the eyes, hot across the cheek. "You''ve made me wayward for so many years," Chen zhe said, looking up slightly with his eyes, but choking uncontrollably in his voice. "Let me be wayward again." When the words fell, Chen Yu stopped and hurried upstairs. Chen Qishan wrung his eyebrows and watched his daughter disappear at the corner of the stairs. His face was full of unbearable sadness "Dad," said Chen Feng, "I support my sister." Chen Qishan was worried about his anger. As soon as he heard Chen Feng speak, he looked at him coldly. "It''s no use looking at me..." Chen Feng said, "what''s your daughter''s temper? You don''t know?" Chen Qishan''s face turned dark. Chen Feng ignored it and continued: "Uncle Lu didn''t say that. Originally, the Bureau didn''t agree with my sister, but the leader of the team chose it... I suggest you persuade my sister to go to the leader!" Chapter 1053 "Hum!" Chen Qishan snorted coldly, and his face was full of haze, so he went to the study. Chen Feng sighed, shook his head and continued to eat with a bowl "Do you agree with your sister and ask your father to find the leader?" Xie Zhenru''s face was dignified, "Xiao Yu will go out on a mission tomorrow. You''re making trouble here." "Mom, when I was so young, I became the deputy bureau of the Eastern District and led the criminal police team. I didn''t come by Uncle Lu''s relationship. It was really her ability to win..." Chen Feng put the food in his mouth. "In fact, as long as my sister is not impulsive, I don''t think there''s any problem with her going on this mission!" Xie Zhenru heaved a sigh and didn''t speak. "And you think, uncle Lu, they all know about my sister..." Chen Feng put down his job, "but finally let me go. Why?" "Why?" Xie Zhenru asked subconsciously. "Of course it''s the leader!" Xie Zhenru frowned and didn''t understand. Chen Feng glanced, "I think since the other party asked her to go, she must know about her..." "Do you know?" Xie Zhenru stared angrily. Chen Feng grinned and continued to eat. "Anyway, whether dad agrees or not, my sister is going to go in the end... I don''t know what to earn?!" Xie Zhenru sighed, "eat it yourself. I''ll go up and see your father." With that, she controlled the wheelchair and went to the elevator Chen Feng looked back and whispered, "compared with the confrontation between my sister and my father, I''m more curious about the person who let my sister work together?!" ¡­¡­ Ye Chenyu''s mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. He took it out and saw that it was a strange number. "Don''t answer the phone when I''m finished...". Ye Chenyu nodded and put it in his ear while answering the phone, "Hello!" "Are you ye Chenyu?" There was a depressed voice in a low voice. Ye Yu frowned slightly...... " "I''m Chen''s father!" Chen Qishan said in a gloomy voice, "the purpose of my call is very simple. I cancel Chen Yu''s mission." Ye Chenyu leaned slowly on the bench, his eyes dropped slightly into the liquor in the wine glass, and his voice made people unable to hear his emotion. "Mr. Chen, you seem to have no right!" "I''ve already called you, and you know what happened to Chen!" "Yes!" "In that case, isn''t it too childish for you to let Chen go?" Chen Qishan''s voice has been mixed with anger uncontrollably. "Children''s play?" Ye Chenyu''s eyes narrowed slightly. "Mr. Chen thinks it''s right to let your daughter choose to escape?" "I don''t care," said Chen Qishan, gritting his teeth. "You just have to cancel Chen Yu''s participation in the mission!" "Sorry, impossible." Ye Chenyu slightly picked a corner of his mouth and said angrily, "why not... Mr. Chen advise your daughter?" He smiled, "if Chen Yu agrees not to go, I can consider changing people before leaving!" "..." Chen Qishan twitched at the corners of his mouth, "Ye Chenyu, do you believe I can''t make you a policeman?" "Letter!" Ye Chenyu replied solemnly, and then said, "it''s estimated that I have to wait until the end of this mission." "You..." "Mr. Chen, it''s getting late. I have some things to prepare here. Bye!" Ye Chenyu said, ignoring the roar from the other end of the mobile phone, he just cut off the phone He gently shook his glass, sipped his lipstick, and his eyes fell deeply in front of him. Problems should never be avoided. Only by facing them can we solve them quickly and directly Especially like Chen Yu, she wrapped a fragile woman with strength! Ye Chenyu drooped his eyes and sent a text message to Chen Yu: assemble at six tomorrow morning. Don''t come if you''re late. Chen Yu replied quickly: Yes, you must be on time! "It''s also clear that I''m the leader of this operation..." Ye Chenyu looked at the reply message and hooked the corner of his lips, and his voice spilled over his lips. "It seems... If you make trouble with your family, you can still keep calm, very good!" Ye Chenyu pressed out his mobile phone, installed it, got up and walked to everyone with leisurely and casual steps The next day, it was a beautiful day in Los Angeles. The action team, known as the "catch the wind" plan, was integrated by five people at eight o''clock and sent to the operation destination by special plane of the armed police Yuecheng! "Sister Chen," Qiao Rui asked with a smile, looking at Chen Chen, who had not spoken since boarding the plane. "This time, we used to eat, drink and Lazar in the mountains and forests. We won''t treat you as a woman!" Chen Yu looked at Qiao Rui coldly. "I''m afraid I don''t care. Don''t you dare!" "Puff" came, and Lu Xiaowei couldn''t help laughing. But just for a moment, he hurriedly shut his mouth and pushed his black framed glasses awkwardly. "When she was training on the spot abroad, I''m afraid you were still thinking about how to get into the special police team..." Ye Chenyu always had a wicked smile in his mouth. "It can scare her, so she''s not the overlord of the police force." Qiao Rui touched his nose. "Brother Yu, I said hello in advance!" Ye Chenyu glanced at Chen Yu, and his deep eyes seemed to see through her. Chen Yu hates the sight of Ye Chenyu, which always makes her feel like she has nowhere to hide Maybe the journey was too boring, and gradually several people chatted according to the task. From beginning to end, Yang Jinyu didn''t speak. He just ordered the parts of his guns and other things on his back After looking at the time, ye Chenyu said: "it is expected to arrive at two o''clock in the afternoon, then repair, and climb the mountain on foot at night... There is no accident. I will meet Interpol at the border of Yuecheng at noon tomorrow." After hearing this, the crowd answered one after another. "I haven''t been cross-country for a long time, and I have a little expectation..." Lu Xiaowei pushed his eyes again and said with a grin. He looks very technical, but he''s talking about the action team. The contrast sprouted and immediately attracted the laughter of several people Time is slowly passing. Every time, there will always be people happy and sad... Some people face it nervously, naturally, some people consume it calmly. "I want to bring my drawing tools." Jane reminded me. "Yes." Gu Beichen said with a smile on his thin lips, "I''m afraid you''re bored..." "Husband, how do you know me so well?" Jane Mo was tired of circling and Gu Beichen began to act coquettish. Gu Beichen kissed her on the forehead, "because I love you!" Jian Mo immediately smiled For parents to be funny when they are disgusting, Jane is now unable to make complaints about it. There are no other ways of relieving her eyes except for turning her eyes with J. "Chen Shao, madam Shao..." a servant came in with a box. "The express delivered here is a greeting card." Gu Beichen and Jian Mo looked at each other, and they both wondered. Gu Beichen took the card and opened it. There was only one sentence in it: sunshine and stars accompany the little angel! Behind the words, there is also a star with four corners "Who sent it?" Jane Mo is light. Chapter 1054 Gu Beichen looked at the font, the familiar breath was clean and smooth, and the stroke was even sharper. Shi Shaoqin! Almost instantly, Gu Beichen must be him. Just When did he become so... Pretentious?! Gu Beichen looked at the words again, and finally his sight fell on the four corners of the stars. With a slight invisible frown in the middle of the eyebrow, has the logo of the ink palace become a star?! J and Jian Jie come over. Jian Mo has gone to Aunt Luo and watched her unpack "Daddy, can I have a look?" Jian Jie asked with a smile on his face and his head up. Gu Beichen handed the card to Jian Jie, and his eyes fell on Jian Mo''s curious face J leaned over to Jian Jie, looked at the words on it, frowned slightly, and whispered, "isn''t this Qin Shao''s word?" "Huh?" Jane looked sideways at J. J tilted his mouth and didn''t speak, but his eyes fell on the four corners of the stars with doubts on his face. The package has been opened. It is a light blue square gift box with a bow tied with orange ribbon. It feels like blue sky and sunshine. Opened, there is a bag of dried flowers made of Sunflower petals and a bag of sunflower seeds. "Eh..." Jian Mo picked up the sunflower seeds, turned left and right, looked back at Gu Beichen, "is it him?!" Gu Beichen nodded with a smile on his thin lips, "it should be!" Jane Mo frowned, then looked at the sunflower seeds in her hand with a smile from the bottom of her eyes, and looked at the bag of yellow dry petals. There was an unspeakable taste "Chen, do you think sunflowers are planted there?" Jian Mo twists the sunflower seeds with her fingers and asks, "the sun is Xiaoyan, the stars... Because it is in the sky..." Gu Beichen came forward and gently grabbed Jian Mo''s shoulder, "yes!" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen, with a thin mist at the bottom of her eyes. Not sad, but happy It''s nice for sunshine and stars to accompany the little angel! "This is a gift from Xiaoyan to the baby..." Jane Mo gently put her hand with sunflower seeds on her lower abdomen, "right?" Gu Beichen nodded and smiled at the corners of his mouth, full of doting. ¡­¡­ Mo palace. Star turned over on the small bed, his small hands gently clenched into a small fist, his pink little mouth ''barked'', and the corners of his mouth opened The white belly of the fish has been exposed in the East, dispersing the darkness in the sky. The little guy seems to have dreamed something, and the corners of his mouth are bigger "Cluck..." I don''t know what I dreamed of. Star laughed and made a sound directly. Shi Shaoqin slowly opened his eyes and looked sideways In the narrow and long line of sight, there was tenderness. At the right time, star laughed again. Shi Shaoqin got up and walked over Watching Star close his eyes, the corners of his mouth drooled with laughter, and his eyes became more and more gentle. Looking at the time, Shi Shaoqin looked at star with deep eyes. "The gift is almost in Mo Mo''s hand... Do you also feel her happiness?" In the light voice, there is a long and far-reaching Shi Shaoqin covers star and walks to the window. It was brighter outside, and the rising sun dyed the sky and sea level into a unique color of "Hope". Sunflowers have begun to pursue sunshine and are full of vitality. Shi Shaoqin astringed his eyes, went to the bedside, took his mobile phone and dialed the person in charge of Mo palace la "Qin Shao?" "Spread people around Jian Mo so that she will not find and affect her normal life and ensure the safety of her and the children in her stomach..." Shi Shaoqin''s faint voice had no tone as usual. "Yes!" The person in charge of Los Angeles answered. It seems that Shi Shaoqin''s behavior is no longer strange. Shi Shaoqin hung up and looked at Star The little guy was rubbing his eyes with his little hands and shouting "stone" in his mouth. Shi Shaoqin smiled at the corners of his pretty mouth and walked over, "wake up?" "The sun... A lot!" Star looked at Shi Shaoqin with sleepy eyes, "there are many stars, too!" Shi Shaoqin leaned over and kissed star on his pink face, "because star is the star and the sun that illuminates others..." ¡­¡­ The sun in the inky sky has just risen, and Los Angeles has fallen into a busy work. "Zhao Qianyu''s resignation letter..." Susan put the resignation letter in front of Xiao Jing and joked, "aren''t you angry with Chen Shao? Come back to work so soon?" Xiao Jing looked at the "letter of resignation" and said angrily: "Chen Shao said frankly, that is, working for Mrs. Shao... I see that Mrs. Shao is pregnant and don''t want her to worry!" As soon as Susan heard this, she immediately smiled without giving face. "Xiao Jing, why didn''t I know you were such an awkward person?" Xiao Jing blackened his face. "You feel sorry for Chen Shao. It''s not easy to have another baby. Just say it and say it so hypocritical..." Susan said with a smile. "You deserve to be eaten by Chen Shao!" "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth. Susan sat down opposite Xiao Jing and saw that he was still holding Zhao Qianyu''s resignation letter. "Why, you''re not willing to leave when people leave?" Xiao Jing looked at Susan coldly. "Susan, will you leave chenshao one day for some reason?" "No..." Susan said calmly. "I work, but I''m also a friend." "Yes!" Xiao Jing leaned back in his seat, looked at Zhao Qianyu''s resignation letter, slowly opened his mouth and said, "so he will pit me, and I will let him pit." Xiao Jing turned his resignation letter again, "Chen Shao let me think for myself, so I think..." "What happened?" Asked Susan. "Chen Shao doesn''t need to play so big to pit me..." Xiao Jing shrugged. "Zhao Qianyu''s appearance just gave him a reason not to think about the reason." Xiao Jing took out his resignation letter. "The most important thing is that the companies that sold the project had plans to buy before." "You mean..." Susan frowned. "Zhao Qianyu is not Chen Shao, but she seems to know the emperor very well." Xiao Jing said, looking at the letter of resignation. No long speech, no touching words, only one sentence! The boss doesn''t like it. It''s estimated that he won''t have a chance to have an office romance. Please resign! "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth. Susan looked at Xiao Jing''s expression, slightly frowned, got up and took the resignation letter in his hand As soon as I saw it, I immediately laughed. "Xiao Jing, why do I think this girl is very interesting?" Susan couldn''t stop laughing. "It''s good to be able to work and funny!" Xiao Jing didn''t speak. He just frowned. He always felt something wrong. Susan smiled for a moment and her eyes fell on the resignation letter again "Eh?" Susan raised her eyes and looked at Xiao Jing, "Zhao Qianyu''s purpose is not you from beginning to end?" Chapter 1055 Xiao Jing looked at Susan. Because of her questions, his vision gradually became deep and bottomless "But I don''t know her!" It''s impossible to have a purpose for a person for no reason, right? Susan wondered and shrugged. "Who knows?" She put down her resignation letter. "However, Zhao Qianyu''s ability is really good. Do you really approve her resignation?" Xiao Jing didn''t speak. After getting along these days, Zhao Qianyu is really qualified as a secretary. "Chen Shao explained," Susan didn''t hide, "if Zhao Qianyu offered to resign, let the personnel department approve it." "Then this is..." Xiao Jing gestured his resignation letter. "I didn''t tell the personnel department," Susan got up. "I don''t think you''ll really affect business because of personal things." At the same time, Susan turned and walked out of the office Xiao Jing was left alone in the office, slightly frowning and meditating. ¡­¡­ "Sister, you really quit?" Zhao Zihan supported the table with his arms and held his chin in the shape of petals. He looked at Zhao Qianyu lying on the sofa and reading novels on his mobile phone. "Otherwise?" Zhao Qianyu flipped the page. "My identity is exposed. In order not to be annoying, I naturally want to automatically screen back." "Then you won''t carry out your love plan?" Zhao Zihan frowned. "How possible?" Zhao Qianyu put down his mobile phone and looked down on the roof, "I call retreat as advance..." Zhao Zihan looked at Zhao Qianyu admiringly, "sister, if you can''t take your brother-in-law in the future, it''s unreasonable!" "But," Zhao Qianyu sighed with a deep sigh, "I''m so afraid Xiao Jing doesn''t go to the road at all!" I know she''s in disguise these days. She stole his wallet and committed a crime before Even, I met him in the street and fooled him! Alas, I feel like this road... It''s too long to see the end. "It''s all right. As long as he''s single, doesn''t he have a chance?" Zhao Zihan raised his eyebrows. "That''s true..." Zhao Qianyu said, picked up his mobile phone and continued to read the novel. "Isn''t it?!" Suddenly, Zhao Qianyu screamed and sat up "The author is pregnant and will not be updated for the time being?!" Zhao Qianyu gnashed his teeth and stared at the author''s message. His face collapsed. "I just saw that I was interested!" "That" I pour Chen, help each other with foam "ah?" Zhao Zihan chuckled, "the author didn''t say not to update, just that it is estimated that the update is more irregular..." "What''s the difference?" Zhao Qianyu said bitterly, "who knows if the computer radiation will not be updated because of the large response... Then, we have to nurse the child and take care of the child..." The more said, the more the look of Zhao Qianyu collapsed. "God... Please give me Xiao Jing to comfort my wounded heart!" Zhao Qianyu''s words just fell. Suddenly, the mobile phone rang "Elder sister, God has given you Xiao Jing..." Zhao Zihan said with a smile. Zhao Qianyu picked up the phone, looked at the strange number, glanced at Zhao Zihan, and then picked up: "hello?" "Zhao Qianyu, this is the imperial personnel department... Vice president Xiao didn''t approve your resignation, so you need to continue to work tomorrow." "Why?" "We don''t know the specific situation. If you don''t understand anything, you can come and ask vice president Xiao in person." "OK..." Zhao Qianyu looked melancholy. When the other party hung up, she suddenly jumped to her feet. "Ah... Zihan, Xiao Jing didn''t approve my resignation letter... Ha ha!" Zhao Qianyu began to jump up with Zhao Zihan in his arms. There was no tangle on his face when he just answered the phone. "You said you said, did he see my domineering resignation letter and suddenly feel that I was already in his heart..." "Ah... No, no, I guess I think it''s fate when we meet for the first time!" Zhao Qianyu let go of Zhao Zihan and put his hands together on his chest. With an intoxicated face, he began to fantasize "Sister, I really don''t want to hit you." Zhao Zihan''s vibrant face was full of unbearable words. "I don''t think you''re too beautiful. If you don''t look back and be disappointed, I''m not with you. You''re alone in this strange city and cry to death." Zhao Qianyu rolled his eyes, "I just want to..." She continued to be intoxicated. "Only when I think about beauty can I have motivation." Xiao Jing, hey hey "A sneeze!" Xiao Jing was in a meeting. Halfway through the conversation, he suddenly sneezed. Slightly frown, just feel a little chilly behind ¡­¡­ Yuecheng. Border armed police force. "Yang Zi, are you done?" Qiao Rui has changed into a jungle suit. "Yes." Yang Jinyu responded and threw a backpack to Qiao Rui. Since neither Chen Yu nor Lu Xiaowei belong to the SWAT team, their understanding of Yang Jinyu only lies in that he is a master of firearms. When a gun comes into his hand, there''s nothing he can''t play with. Qiao Rui opened his backpack, took out some pistols inside and smiled, then looked at Chen Yu and Lu Xiaowei, "sister Yu, Xiaowei, come and pick one that''s easy..." "Eh, aren''t all these made by Yang Zi on the plane?" Lu Xiaowei looked puzzled. "Well, reassembled..." Qiao Rui said with a smile, "the range should be at least 0.5 to twice as long as the original." Lu Xiaowei suddenly brightened his eyes. Even Chen Yu is interested While chatting, the four checked their equipment. "What did ye Chenyu do?" Chen Yu looked around and asked suspiciously. Qiao Rui shrugged. "I don''t know..." he continued to pack his equipment. "Anyway, brother Yu must appear when it''s time to appear." Chen Yu frowned slightly, and the corners of his mouth moved back and forth, but he didn''t say anything. Time, moving a little bit As the time for action approached, Chen''s heart became calmer and calmer. "Go to the canteen for dinner..." Just as the sunset was about to disappear behind the barracks, ye Chenyu came back with a bag of things in his hand. "Brother Yu, your equipment..." Qiao Rui picked his chin. "You go to eat first. I''ll be there in five minutes!" "Good!" Qiao Rui answered, got up and walked towards the canteen. Yang Jinyu and Lu Xiaowei got up, but Chen didn''t move. Ye Chenyu ignored her and packed up his equipment quickly and rationally. "What have you done?" Chen asked, "or should I ask, what''s in your hand?" "Mai De''s latest information..." Ye Chenyu didn''t hide Chen Yu. Chen Yu looked slightly deep. "Wasn''t it from above?" Ye Chenyu picked up his eyebrows and suddenly leaned over to Chen Yu Chen Chen subconsciously stepped back, but behind him was an equipment bag. She stumbled under her feet and fell back Ye Chenyu took her back with a hook in his long arm. At the same time, his face was evil and close to her face. He smiled and asked, "it''s not a formal channel... Do you want to report me?" Chapter 1056 The warm breath spread on Chen Yu''s face with evil charm. She frowned, but she calmly ignored Ye Chenyu''s ruffian Qi. "You are the boss of this operation," Chen said calmly. "Just asked, but from a private standpoint... You can answer or not." Ye Chenyu smiled and became more and more evil. He let go of Chen Yu just as the passing armed police whistled. He nodded to the man and said, "you go to dinner first." "Yes!" Chen Yu answered and stared at Ye Chenyu quietly. Then he looked at what he had brought back uncontrollably. The purpose of her trip is very simple, the disintegration of the wind puppet group, and catching macdow! As for how ye Chenyu got the information, it doesn''t matter at all She has been indoctrinated by many foreign ideas. In a sense, she doesn''t think there is any mistake in using some special means to crack down on criminals. Ye Chenyu quickly sorted out his equipment, went to change his jungle combat suit, and then went to the canteen. Even though he arrived later than everyone else, his speed of eating didn''t fall. "Right time..." Ye Chenyu raised his hand. "It''s thirteen minutes to seven." "Same!" "Same..." Chen Yu and others responded. "Finally count the equipment and get on the bus at seven on time." "Yes!" Under the gray sky, the group of five boarded the car and went to the high mountain intersection on the border This battle involves personnel distribution. Interpol does not intend to expose Ye Chenyu''s five people. Then they can''t take the usual road to the border The only way is to climb the mountain. "Captain ye, I can only take you here..." said the armed police driving. "The head asked me to remind you again that you will leave the country after crossing the mountain. If you are caught, your identity cannot be exposed!" "Yes." Ye Chenyu answered and opened the door to signal everyone to get off. They didn''t stop. They picked up their equipment, put on night vision goggles and began to climb the mountain The steps of the five people were in a hurry. Behind Ye Chenyu''s mat, Qiao Rui opened the way, waving the military thorn in his hand to cut off the thorns. Everyone here can''t be said to be a cross-country expert, but they all have their own special ability under the condition of strong endurance. In the dense mountains and forests under the summer night, no one spoke, only the sound of rustling footsteps filled the air, with an unspeakable dignified breath Meanwhile, Los Angeles. In the box of a private club, there is an atmosphere of debauchery everywhere. Men and women were in a mess. But on such an occasion, two men sat in the backlight, as if talking about something "Are you sure who it is?" Asked a thin man who seemed to have only skin and bones left. "I''m not sure..." said the middle-aged man with a national face and a beer belly, "but the five people on this trip are sure." The thin man seemed very dissatisfied with such an answer. "Li Ju, we don''t just want such news that we pay so many tribute in a year..." "You should know very well that no one knows who this time except the relevant personnel?" The man known as Li bureau took a cigarette. "Moreover, in order to cover the identity of the five people, both the criminal police team and the special police team sent a large number of tasks." In this way, there is no way to know who is the last person to "catch the wind". "Think of a way..." the thin man thought for a while before saying, "you always have to know yourself and your enemy in order to be on guard, don''t you?" "Why did Mr. macdow have to go against the wind this time?" Li Ju''s voice was dignified. "I said last time that I should think twice about my recent actions, but why don''t you listen?" "Li Bureau, it''s not your turn to tell us what to do..." the thin man snorted coldly, "tomorrow, tomorrow at most, I''ll determine the personnel list." Li Ju frowned, obviously dissatisfied with the man''s attitude, but he didn''t dare to attack. "From the beginning, I think Li Ju knew very well..." the thin man lit a cigar. "Wealth and honor, but in danger!" Cold words fall, with warnings and threats. Li Ju''s heart was cold, and his thick lips trembled. In the end, he didn''t dare to attack his dissatisfaction "I''ll find a way!" Li Ju said in a deep voice, put out the dead smoke behind the ashtray, got up and walked outside the box. The strength of closing the door shows his dissatisfaction at the moment. "Brother Tiequan, do you think Li''s game is reliable?" After Li Ju left, someone rubbed against the thin man and asked. Iron fist took a cigar and narrowed his eyes while spitting out the smoke: "after so many years of cooperation, it should still be usable..." "Then..." "Keep an eye on it. If he has any ideas, do it first!" Iron fist said coldly, "if you can get the list of those five people, you can do it!" A useless piece left... Is just a time bomb for your side. People who are often greedy for money have always been greedy for life Such people are most afraid of death! Naturally, in order to live, there is nothing to say. ¡­¡­ The night in Los Angeles is as prosperous as ever, full of drunkenness under luxury. The five person action team of "catching the wind" who climbed the mountain in Yuecheng has reached halfway up the mountain in just three hours "Trim!" Ye Chenyu looked at the time and said. After the crowd answered, they found a fairly flat place to sit on the ground. After three hours of mountain climbing, no matter who it is, his physical strength has obviously begun to lose... Especially Lu Xiaowei. He is a technician in the end. Although he has been trained in place on weekdays, he obviously can''t keep up with them compared with Ye Chenyu. "Sister Yu''s physical strength is really speechless..." Qiao Rui leaned against the tree trunk, drank saliva and moistened his throat. "You''re really one who can keep up with brother Yu''s physical strength." After three hours, there was no big reaction. Except ye Chenyu, there was only Chen Yu. "The jungle is my main training program in the past two years..." Chen Yu opened his mouth faintly, but looked at Ye Chenyu. "However, I''m curious about your physical strength." "I''m often chased and hacked by people. I can''t even think about it." Ye Chenyu said angrily and threw the kettle to Chen, "wait for me to open the way, you can cushion behind." "Good!" Chen Yu answered and didn''t drink too much affectation. "I''m behind the mat!" Yang Jinyu, who has been silent, suddenly said. Ye Chenyu glanced at him and shrugged, "that girl opens the way..." Yang Jinyu listened, slightly invisible light frowned, and didn''t speak again. Chen Yu looked at him and then looked at Ye Chenyu. It seemed that he was unable to accept her arbitrary change of orders. However, since Ye Chenyu changed, she didn''t say much. "Ask questions..." Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu with deep eyes and smiled on one side of his mouth. "It''s hard to hold all the way. If you look back, it''s not good if there are more and more problems!" Chapter 1057 "The order is decided. Can you change it at will?" Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu with a slight chill. Ye Chenyu smiled, and even Qiao Rui laughed. Lu Xiaowei looked at them curiously, "in fact, I''m also very curious..." If the captain doesn''t have the decisive decision-making power, there will be problems in such actions. "You don''t know brother Yu," Qiao Rui wiped the army stab and stuffed it into the dagger sleeve. "He leads the team. Everyone can come as they want... Of course, if you act, it''s not allowed." "But if you develop such a habit, don''t you often resist unconsciously?" Lu Xiaowei pushed his glasses. "It depends on whether you are satisfied..." Qiao Rui grinned. "I am not satisfied when brother Yu parachuted, and then the mother who was beaten almost doesn''t know... Am I waiting to be beaten?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Lu Xiaowei and Chen Yu both twitched at the corners of their mouths and looked at Qiao Rui incredulously. "I''m not kidding..." Qiao Rui stood up straight. "The SWAT team didn''t accept it. Which one hasn''t been beaten?" Suddenly he paused, "but Yang Zi hasn''t been beaten..." "Yangzi, are you convinced of brother Yu?" Lu Xiaowei looked curious. "Not satisfied!" Yang Jinyu said without thinking. Lu Xiaowei was curious, "eh, you''re not convinced. Haven''t you been beaten yet?" "Because I''m not as fast as brother Yu..." Yang Jinyu said in a low pressure voice. "Special police team, before brother Yu came, no one pulled a gun faster than me!" "Yang Zi''s gun was just pulled out, and brother Yu''s gun has reached his forehead..." Qiao Rui held back a smile. "Yang Zi went to practice drawing speed in the middle of the night alone for this matter for several days." "What about now?" Lu Xiaowei has a gossip face. "Brother Yu said, this mission is over, go back and give me a chance to compete again!" Yang Jinyu was different from his previous indifference, and his voice was obviously excited. Deep in the mountains, everywhere is quiet and overflowing, which makes people feel depressed. As soon as Lu Xiaowei''s chatterbox opened, he began to ask East and West However, the topic has always been around Ye Chenyu. Chen Yu didn''t speak any more. He just looked at Ye Chenyu carefully while listening to Qiao Rui and Lu Xiaowei talking. She read his file when she took over the deputy bureau. In the police academy, he did well, but he was not outstanding. At that time, I liked him to go undercover. To a large extent, he was evil enough Specifically, when the police academy, let the police officers love and hate. Such a person is often well disguised. And he really pretended very well... Even, the cloud is light and the wind is light between words. How many times do those experience need to be exchanged for life? "Ready to go..." Ye Chenyu looked at the time and interrupted Lu Xiaowei and Qiao Rui. Qiao Rui subconsciously listens to orders, but Lu Xiaowei is also inertial and takes in his curious mind Chen Yu glanced at Lu Xiaowei. While opening the way, his brain has been running rapidly. Perhaps, some people are born with leadership ability. They don''t need to convince others with virtue. Even if, as Qiao Rui said, he can make you convinced of him Obviously, ye Chenyu is such a person. ¡­¡­ Mo Shaochen gently hugged Li Xiaoyue from behind, put his chin on her shoulder, put his cheek close to her, and his eyes fell out of the window "What are you thinking?" Li Xiaoyue naturally leaned on Mo Shaochen, "I''m a little worried about the second court tomorrow." Mo Shaochen smiled, "with me..." "Elder martial brother, do you think..." Li Xiaoyue hesitated before asking, "can this case really lead to the ghost in the police station?" "This is not something we should worry about," Mo Shaochen said calmly. "We just need to make a reasonable analysis of the case itself and collect strong evidence... Just get the party off the crime as much as possible." Li Xiaoyue has a dignified expression. "As for the rest..." Mo Shaochen hugged more tightly. "Those are the things of the police, not our lawyers." "I understand. I''m just upset..." Li Xiaoyue lowered her eyes. "I don''t know why. I''m worried about ye Chenyu." Mo Shaochen let go of Li Xiaoyue. Sometimes words can''t explain a woman''s sixth sense. "I don''t know what I think," Li Xiaoyue frowned at Mo Shaochen. "For no reason, I brought tomorrow''s lawsuit with him..." She sighed deeply, "it''s obviously irrelevant. Even, we don''t know what task he has... But I don''t know why, I think so!" "Where is the connection point?" Mo Shaochen asked calmly. Li Xiaoyue shook his head, "I don''t know..." The inexplicable and even unknown sense of involvement made her feel ridiculous. Mo Shaochen frowned, looked at Li Xiaoyue''s tangled appearance and smiled at her hair. "We''ve all seen Chenyu''s ability," Mo Shaochen comforted. "I think you''re too nervous about tomorrow''s lawsuit." Li Xiaoyue smiled, "maybe..." "It''s getting late. Have a rest early, huh?" Li Xiaoyue nodded, "how about you?" "I have some things to deal with. I''ll go to bed later." "Well, I''ll go to bed first..." Mo Shaochen nodded and watched Li Xiaoyue go to the bedroom before he went to his study. Standing in front of the window, looking at the gradually decreasing lights of the community, Mo Shaochen''s thoughts are turning over. If you have to say that tomorrow''s lawsuit has anything to do with Chenyu, then... There is only one! The position of Mo Shaochen''s heart suddenly tightened. That feeling was immediately tightened by the rope and was about to suffocate. Insider! Two words crossed his mind, and Mo Shaochen''s breathing became a little uncomfortable If Chenyu''s action is dangerous, and the ghost in the police station plays a role Mo Shaochen took his cell phone and couldn''t even care that it was already 11 o''clock, so he dialed Gu Beichen. When the "buzzing" mobile phone vibrated, Gu Beichen first looked at Jian Mo who had just fallen asleep, then answered the phone and got up Gu Beichen didn''t speak and went out of the bedroom. "Huh?" "Beichen, is Chenyu''s action very dangerous?" Mo Shaochen asked. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "what''s the matter?" After Mo Shaochen said his doubts, he was worried and said solemnly: "if there is a connection, will his actions be exposed in advance?" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil deepened and didn''t answer immediately. Not many people know about this operation, but it is definitely not completely confidential. At least, he knows "If someone leaked the action plan and people in advance, wouldn''t Chenyu''s trip be very dangerous?" Mo Shaochen''s voice became more dignified and worried because of Gu Beichen''s silence. Chapter 1058 Gu Beichen was still silent, but a pair of ink pupils were already deep and bottomless. Mo Shaochen didn''t speak any more, and the two were so silent "Beichen, I don''t want anything to happen to him..." After a while, Mo Shaochen said slowly, "I haven''t had time to enjoy the love of my hard won family. Even, he hasn''t had time to attend my wedding." Everyone has their own way. Chenyu is a policeman. His road is doomed to danger and excitement. But no matter what happens in the future, he hopes that at the wedding, Chenyu can marry him and Xiaoyue as a brother with his father''s blessing. This is not only what he wants, but also what Chenyu wants. "I can''t interfere with the task..." Gu Beichen said slowly. "I''ll find a way to deal with things here." "OK." Mo Shaochen answered. He''s a criminal defense lawyer, and most of all, he deals with the police. He is well aware of the prevailing atmosphere in this society... And that it is impossible to completely eradicate it. But people are selfish. He can''t manage so much. He just wants his family to be safe! After hanging up the phone, Gu Beichen didn''t go back to his room. He just went out of the house and walked in the summer night with strong night, feeling cool. "Is Xiaomo asleep?" Gu Moyuan is fishing at night in a pond in the manor. Gu Beichen walked over and sat on the ground on the grass. "Just slept..." Gu Moyuan nodded. Under a small light that was not very bright, he could see his old face. "I used to run around with your mother," Gu Moyuan said with a smile in his mouth. "I don''t run recently. I found that life is better to be simpler." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly. Gu Moyuan glanced at him. "Are you still used to living back?" "Fortunately," Gu Beichen said without much emotion, "when Mo''er is accompanied by his mother, there is always a companion." "When I came out at that time, I saw your mother studying the things that pregnant women should pay attention to in the room..." Gu Moyuan''s voice was relaxed. "She''s a mother of four children. She doesn''t seem to understand anything." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and smiled, "it''s been too long. I guess I forgot..." "Well, she said that herself." Gu Moyuan''s smile deepened. "That''s good. It''s better to think about something than why." Gu Beichen was silent. After a while, he asked, "what''s mom''s attitude towards Chenyu and Chenyu''s mother?" Before ye Chenyu left, although both Ye''s mother and he came because Mo''er was pregnant... Everyone also met face to face. But in the end, everyone came to be happy for Mo''er, and mom didn''t show anything in detail. Gu Moyuan saw that the fish floated and collected the fishing rod, but the fish slipped away again He didn''t care. He put the fish food again. After shaking the rod, he said, "it''s a lie to say that he''s not angry at all... It''s your little aunt who left them." "Yes." "No matter who was right or wrong, there is no way to recover now..." Gu Moyuan sighed, "we have experienced so much, no matter how much emotion, there is nothing in the end." Gu Beichen looked ahead, and the ink pupil gradually became deep "Shaochen accepted it. What else can Lanxi tangle with?" Gu Moyuan said. "It''s good for Shaochen to have a brother and a real blood relative after so many years..." "If we kiss again, it''s a layer apart..." Gu Moyuan''s voice became far-reaching, "different." "Your mother didn''t say, but I know what she meant." Gu Moyuan looks at Gu Beichen. Under the small lamp, his son is still indifferent and alienated, which is distressing. "If everyone can be well, don''t tangle too much about the past..." Gu Moyuan said slowly. "It''s not necessary to let the past hurt the present and finally hurt everyone." Gu Beichen tilted his head and looked up at Gu Moyuan. "Mom, if you think so, I''ll thank her for Chenyu..." After a pause, his voice was slightly dignified and said: "Chenyu deserves everyone''s sincere treatment. He has paid a lot to be a good brother... He should have Shaochen as a brother." His ink pupil fell on the pond, "with Chenyu, Shaochen is also happy..." The words fell, Gu Beichen took back his sight and got up. "I''ll go back to rest, and you''ll rest early." "OK..." Gu Moyuan answered with a smile and took back his sight after watching Gu Beichen leave. The night became quiet because it was deep. Even the sound of insects is gradually hidden The years are quiet and good. When you get old, you can still live with your son and grandchildren. For Gu Moyuan and Cen Lanxi, it is the greatest happiness after waking up. Fortunately Everything is still in time. Gu Moyuan relaxed and said with a smile, "the daughter-in-law my son is looking for is good... No wonder my mother likes Xiaomo so much." ¡­¡­ The night was spent in the quiet of Los Angeles and the tension of the border mountains of Yuecheng. When the sun rises, a new day comes as scheduled. In the mountains and forests with primitive flavor, the sun penetrates the lush branches and leaves and falls in small pieces. Few, but also greedy. After a night of almost non-stop climbing, ye Chenyu and others have climbed the mountain. "Go ahead and leave the country..." Ye Chenyu said indistinctly after eating a self heated meal. Chen Yu looked at the landmark of the border and was silent. From the beginning of mountaineering, as he got closer and closer to the border, Chen became more and more silent. While eating, ye Chenyu went to Chen Yu and sat down. He said to Qiao Rui, "go, go away!" "Brother Yu, you are not kind..." Qiao Rui muttered and went to Yang Jinyu with water and compressed biscuits. Lu Xiaowei is a technical controller. Since he knew that Yang Jinyu was very good at firearms, he was a little free along the way. He either chatted with Qiao Rui or stuck to Yang Jinyu to say something about firearms. To pass the time is to be curious about everything "Is there a burden in my heart?" Ye Chenyu asked Qiao Rui, glancing askance at the self cooked meal. Chen Yu silently ate compressed biscuits, obviously without taste. Although it''s not really delicious "I''m calm." Chen Yu said after a while, "at least, it''s calmer than expected." Chen Yu took a sip of water. "All these years of hard work and training are actually for this moment... I am not allowed to lose my calmness because of my emotions." "It''s all Farting!" Ye Chenyu immediately turned his eyes and said. Chen Yu suddenly looked at Ye Chenyu. Obviously, he was very dissatisfied with his coarseness. Biting his teeth, he asked, "why did I just... Fart?" "Hum." Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Chen coldly, "Chen Chen, do you die if you don''t pretend to be strong for a moment?" Chen Yu''s painted face was filled with anger A pair of eyes looked at Ye Chenyu with an unknown warning. Chapter 1059 Ye Chenyu ignored the warning in Chen Yu''s latent consciousness and coldly withdrew his sight. He ate a mouthful of rice, chewed and said, "obviously, the depression is about to break out, and he is still pretending to be calm here..." "Ye Chenyu!" Chen Yu was exposed and immediately raised his voice angrily, "which eye of yours saw me pretend¡° Qiao Rui and others looked at this side one after another. They were confused. They didn''t know what ye Chenyu said to Chen Yu, which angered her. "I don''t know why," Lu Xiaowei said in a low voice. "I always think... Brother Yu is particularly easy to annoy the calm sister." Yang Jinyu frowned slightly, looked at Lu Xiaowei and looked at Chen Yu. Qiao Rui had a bad smile on his mouth. "Brother Yu is born to annoy others..." He said casually without much "gossip". In the end, in the task, some jokes are harmless at ordinary times. Now it''s inappropriate for a five person group. Chen Yu felt that everyone looked at it and looked at it with a sharp eye Lu Xiaowei was immediately shocked by such a sight, and then deliberately pretended to look around, but secretly grinned. Qiao Rui also hurried back. "Xiao Wei, go back. You have to teach me how to interfere with drones. I think the special police and the criminal police should have a technical exchange back..." Qiao Rui also installed it. "Yes, yes, yes!" Lu Xiaowei answered quickly. Two people, some of them without three hundred taels of silver here, deliberately pretended not to know what happened and chatted Only Yang Jinyu took back his sight and didn''t participate in the chat between them. Chen Chen coldly withdrew his sight and looked at Ye Chenyu See him evil ruffian smile at the same time, has eaten the self hot meal clean. "Pretending is very tired..." Ye Chenyu wiped his mouth and said, "Chen, if you still have such a mood after crossing the border, you will stay." In the end, ye Chenyu restrained his usual evil charm and said in a awe inspiring voice, "I didn''t choose you to drag everyone back." "I won''t!" Chen Chen gritted his teeth. Ye Chenyu gave her a cold look, "not the best..." When the words fell, he narrowed his eyes and got up. "Rectify each other and cross the border in ten minutes!" Ye Chenyu looked at the time and said, then turned and went to the jungle. Chen Yu sat there, watching Ye Chenyu''s back gradually annihilated by dense thorns, and secretly bit his teeth. From beginning to end, ye Chenyu didn''t say. However, he still saw her calm disguise Yes! As she approached the border, her blood was boiling uncontrollably. I can''t say whether it''s excitement or resistance, or both Chen Chen hung his eyes and packed up the unfinished compressed biscuits. There was a complex emotion across his eyes. The atmosphere was a little stiff. Lu Xiaowei and Qiao Rui looked at each other and grinned one after another "I feel like brother Yu is angry?" Lu Xiaowei whispered. What ye Chenyu and Chen Yu said in the end, their position can''t be heard clearly, but they just feel that it seems very strange between the two people. Qiao Rui shrugged and didn''t speak. He has been with brother Yu for some time, during which he trained together and went on an international mission. Qiao Rui knows very well that when brother Yu has such an attitude, he is not angry at all, but cold! Cold can freeze people. When there is such an emotion, it shows that... Something has touched his bottom line. Qiao Rui packed up his things and glanced at Chen Yu secretly At this moment, he always felt that Chen was not the overlord flower in the police station, which made him feel that she was a little... Fragile! Yes, it''s fragile! Qiao Rui grinned secretly and felt that the word he used was a little strange. Ten minutes. Finish eating, pack up your equipment and solve personal problems. Ten minutes later Ye Chenyu opened the way, Qiao Rui padded behind... Everyone crossed the border. From this moment on, they have to face not only hidden risks, but also some troubles caused by irregular border crossing Chen Yu followed Ye Chenyu, and his star eyes glittered with strange light. Ye Chenyu''s worry she knows very well that she is not only facing herself... It may involve many people. "I will adjust myself as soon as possible..." Chen said silently without reason. Ye Chenyu stopped and looked back at Chen. Just at a glance, he didn''t say anything. Ye Chenyu turned and continued to open the road But when he turned around, the corner of his mouth overflowed with a smile that Chen Yu couldn''t see. Yang Jinyu was in the middle. He looked at them and frowned slightly. Lu Xiaowei turns back and winks at Qiao Rui. They look at each other and smile. They are totally gossip. They don''t think there''s anything wrong. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. The summer sunshine sprinkles its temperature on every corner of the city early. A busy day begins in the early morning Wang Qiang rubbed his eyebrows and listened to Chen Qishan, who had come early in the morning, nagging all the time. The whole person was going to collapse. "Lao Chen, this little girl has been there. You can''t hold me..." Chen Qishan''s face was gloomy. "I just want to know whether she is safe or not." "After the mission, even to the location, no one knows or knows their affairs!" Wang Qiang sighed, "your daughter has been a policeman for so many years. There are a lot of external training. Shouldn''t you get used to it?" "Get used to Farting!" Chen Qishan gritted his teeth, "before training, where can the danger go? This time it''s different..." "What''s the difference? It''s good to be trained..." "It''s not your daughter. Of course you''re relaxed!" "Xiao Yu is not my daughter, but I grew up..." Wang Qiang heard this and immediately lost his temper. "Can I still think about her After a pause, "besides, Yu Gong, I also hope my people can come back intact!" The more he said, the more angry Wang Qiang pointed to the table. "Then again, whether special police or criminal police, it''s all on the edge of danger..." Wang Qiang stared, "your daughter is life, others'' life is not life?" After being robbed by Wang Qiang for a while, Chen Qishan immediately had no words to refute what he asked. "Lao Chen, we don''t want anything to happen..." Wang Qiang said earnestly. Chen Qishan has a sullen life. He also knows the truth, but it''s impossible not to worry This daughter has been spoiled since childhood. Then it happened, and he couldn''t put it down all his life "In fact, Xiao Yu was right in the past..." Wang Qiang sighed. "She is a professional, and opening her heart knot is two." "In case of the influence of heart knot..." "No!" "Wang Yu said firmly," something like this will not happen. " Speaking of Ye Chenyu, Chen Qishan was so angry that he didn''t fight at all. Chapter 1060 Wang Qiang looked at him like this and estimated that ye Chenyu''s smelly boy must have wronged Chen Qishan. "It''s the one who has no eyes..." "Hey, don''t say I love you!" Wang Qiang immediately interrupted Chen Qishan''s words. He looked at the time. "Lao Chen, it''s getting late. I have a meeting to hold later... You see, I''ll let you know if there''s any news." Chen Qishan swallowed his choked words again. He was dissatisfied, but he was not nagging. "I''m gone..." "Good!" Wang Qiang got up with a smile and watched Chen Qishan leave before he secretly breathed a sigh. Chen Qishan hummed and muttered, "this ye Chenyu, when you come back, I won''t find a reason to make you look good..." "Yo, isn''t this president Chen?" Chen Qishan raised his eyes, looked at the speaker and immediately smiled and said hello, "Li Ju, I haven''t seen you for a long time." "Yes, yes..." Li Ju smiled and chatted with Chen Qishan before asking, "why did you come so early today?" "Come and inquire about something..." Chen Qishan didn''t say much. "My company is still a little busy. Let''s go first... How many brothers have an appointment to play?" "OK." Li Ju smiled and nodded. "I''ll go first..." Chen Qishan said hello and went to the elevator. Li Ju didn''t move. He just looked back at Chen Qishan and gradually became profound Chen Qishan just mentioned Ye Chenyu? He looked back and looked in the direction of Wang Qiang''s office Are there Chen Yu and ye Chenyu on this mission?! ¡­¡­ "Zihan, I went to work..." Zhao Qianyu said in shoes. "Sister, don''t you eat at home?" Zhao Zihan came out of the kitchen with a spoon. "I also cooked porridge." "There is beauty to see, not hungry!" Zhao Qianyu laughed, took his bag and went out. "Still beautiful?" Zhao Zihan glanced, "I fantasize that Xiao Jing is yours... Hum!" Zhao Zihan couldn''t stand rolling his eyes and went into the kitchen. Zhao Qianyu changed her old-fashioned and "introverted" image of the emperor. Today, she is wearing a crisp and beautiful waistcoat, small stand collar shirt and seven point pencil pants. A pair of not too high thin heel sandals, coupled with her deliberately curly hair, the whole person is full of youth without losing the charm of women. "That seems to be Secretary Zhao..." several women at the front desk whispered. "Isn''t it? The dull looking Zhao Qianyu?" "Isn''t that her..." "God, take off these glasses and clean them up again. It''s really different..." "Yes, how nice it is!" "It makes me want to have my hair done..." The sound of "Ding" came and the elevator arrived. Zhao Qianyu stepped in. Just as he wanted to press the elevator off button, he saw Xiao Jing coming with one hand. She hurriedly pressed the open button again. Xiao Jing glanced at her lightly and walked in indifferently. Zhao Qianyu glanced angrily and said hello, "Vice President Xiao." When the elevator door closed, Xiao Jing didn''t look at Zhao Qianyu, but asked indifferently, "Zhao Qianyu, you''re close to me..." his eyes fell on the shadow reflected by the elevator, "for what?" "For you!" Zhao Qianyu said without thinking. Xiao Jing looked at Zhao Qianyu coldly. "I have made it clear in my resignation letter..." Zhao Qianyu glanced at his eyes. "I was afraid of a bad impression before. After all, we didn''t meet well." "Hum!" Xiao Jing snorted coldly. Zhao Qianyu said, "since you don''t wear your mouth..." "Don''t think about me," Xiao Jing said coldly. "I didn''t approve your resignation because the emperor won''t waste a talent..." After a pause, Xiao Jing turned and looked at Zhao Qianyu, "it has nothing to do with you and your ideas!" The sound of "Ding" came and the elevator arrived in time. While Zhao Qianyu touched the corner of his lips, Xiao Jing turned around and stepped out at the moment when the elevator door opened "It has nothing to do with you and your thoughts..." Zhao Qianyu murmured after learning from Xiao Jing, turned his eyes unbearably on his face, raised his feet and walked out. She looked at Xiao Jing with the back of "strangers don''t get close", wrinkled her nose and made a grimace. "I don''t believe it yet..." Zhao Qianyu whispered, "I can''t find a way to take you... Hum!" Zhao Qianyu went back to the office and just sat down. He thought about the internal phone. "Before ten o''clock, sort out the plans of various departments for this quarter and give them to me..." Xiao Jing heard no emotional voice. "I see." With a "pop", the voice of the microphone directly "thrown" on the phone came from the phone. Zhao Qianyu secretly grinned and muttered discontentedly, "if you have such a big opinion on me, you can directly approve your resignation..." She hummed in her nose, but a ghost spirit smile floated on her face. "I think you just want to have an office relationship with me. I''m probably sorry..." Zhao Qianyu got up and went to the filing cabinet. While turning over the information, he was elated and said to himself: "then, I deliberately use this way to strengthen my unwanted psychology that I can''t get to you..." "Actually, it doesn''t need to be so troublesome..." Zhao Qianyu paused, closed his eyes and fantasized, grinning, "after all, I''m sure I''ll get it for you!" The sound of "puff" came suddenly as Zhao Qianyu''s words fell. Zhao Qianyu suddenly opened his eyes and looked back. He saw Susan standing at the door with a folder. "Teng" once, Zhao Qianyu''s face turned red. She was just self satisfied. Now Susan heard it... It''s too embarrassing. "You really like Xiao Jing?" Susan asked, putting down the folder. Although Zhao Qianyu''s nature is not big, he can be caught immediately. In the end, he is still a little embarrassed. "Shall I give you some tips?" Asked Susan with a smile. As soon as Zhao Qianyu heard this, he couldn''t take care of his embarrassment, so he quickly rubbed it over, "sister Shan, how can I do a few moves... How can I give it away!" "Actually, it''s very simple." Susan raised her eyebrows and said. Zhao Qianyu''s eyes brightened, waiting for Susan to continue. However, Susan turned her head and pondered "Forget it, it''s too dirty..." Susan shook her head. "You''d better do it your way." "No, sister Shan..." where can Zhao Qianyu let Susan go? "Now in this society, who is still pure? What we need is pollution... Only when it is polluted can we win it quickly!" "Are you sure?" Susan raised her eyebrows. "OK!" Zhao Qianyu nodded heavily, "I want to be on the top now." Susan hooked her fingers and Zhao Qianyu got through. "Office romance is actually very simple..." Susan said with an ambiguous smile in her mouth. "In a word... Secretary if you have something to do, secretary if you have nothing to do!" Chapter 1061 With a "click", Zhao Qianyu only felt a lightning strike from the middle of her face. She looked at Susan in amazement, with unbelievable eyes. I don''t know if I don''t believe Susan will say such a thing, or if I don''t believe it can work Susan looked at Zhao Qianyu''s reaction and looked satisfied, "well, it seems... You''re good at speaking." With a deep smile, Susan smiled back and walked out. Zhao Qianyu was frozen in place and couldn''t react for a while. When the reaction came over, Zhao Qianyu looked like eating bitter gourd. "Sister Shan, can you have a good chat..." Zhao Qianyu drooped his shoulders and continued to look for information. "It''s all right to be a secretary..." Zhao Qianyu said, "Xiao Jing has to be interested in me, too?!" Zhao Qianyu looked at his figure, "in fact, I still have the capital to seduce men..." She raised her eyebrows, shook her head with a smile at the corners of her mouth, restrained her mind and began to get information. As Xiao Jing said, Zhao Qianyu belongs to the emperor who wants to stay. In terms of ability, there is absolutely nothing to say. "Vice President Xiao, if there''s nothing else, I''ll go out first." When Zhao Qianyu worked, he was quite serious. Xiao Jing just made a "um" sound in his throat. Without looking at Zhao Qianyu, he took the information she had sorted out and began to look through it. As time goes by In the twinkling of an eye, it was eleven o''clock. Zhao Qianyu was about to wait for a meal in the canteen when the internal telephone rang again. "Check the phase III plan of the science and technology city with relevant departments and sort out the data..." Xiao Jing said indifferently, "send it to Xianghua electronics." Before Zhao Qianyu spoke, Xiao Jing had hung up the phone. Sort out the data and send it to Xianghua Electronics It''s possible for her to have a hard meal at noon. Looking at the time, Zhao Qianyu took a breath and began to get something to send to Xianghua electronics. noon. Imperial executive canteen. "You just invite me to eat here?" Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu opposite and glanced discontentedly, "still take my husband as a favor." "No way, there are too many design cases recently, and you have to take charge of Xiangyu... Our combination can only be supported by me. How difficult is it for me?!" Shen Chu rolled his eyes. "I don''t have time to congratulate you when you are pregnant. You can only come to me and comfort me." "What''s your fallacy..." Jane Mo was a little embarrassed. "I want to see you and stimulate my own fallacy!" Shen Chu smiled at Jian mo. "I''ve been out for months, and you haven''t given yourself a chance?" Jane asked as she ate. As soon as Shen Chu heard this, he immediately sank his face. "Don''t mention... I met a plague man in my life." "Plague man?!" Jane Mo has some doubts. "I tell you, I don''t know why I''m so unlucky..." Shen Chu drank water. "It''s just that we danced together in the square last year, which caused a psychosis." Jane Mo''s eyes lit up gradually. "It''s all right. If you provoke me, I''ll bear it!" Shen Chu gritted his teeth. "Last time I met a man in the club, I felt pretty good. I thought I might as well try dating..." "And then?" "Then?" Shen Chu turned his eyes and was annoyed. "Then I was stirred up by the plague man..." Jane Mo smiled, "why, he said you were his woman?" "No..." Shen Chu said gritting his teeth. "He directly set the man up and let me catch him." "Huh?" Jane Mo can''t understand. Shen Chu was already gnashing his teeth because he was angry. "It''s the man I know in the club who has a bad private life. The plague man set up a set for me to see... What else do you say? I want to thank him for letting me see the man!" With a puff, Jane Mo laughed. "Hey, he''s right..." Jane Mo scooped the soup. "If you marry this man later, some of you will be depressed." "But I''m not stupid. Do I need him in this way?" Shen Chu said coldly. Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu and asked with a smile, "well, this plague man won''t like you, will he?" "Don''t..." Shen Chu immediately expressed his gratitude. "According to the plot, often you can come together in the end..." Jane Mo said in a gesture of a person who came over. Shen Chu rolled his eyes. "Then I''d better be alone!" "What does this plague man do?" Jian Mo asked with some gossip. "I don''t know. It seems to be a director..." Shen Chu said without interest. "It''s estimated that it''s not a third rate director or a director who hasn''t made a play at all." Jane Mo frowned. "He is a normal director. Who has leisure to set a trap for others?" Shen Chu said, suddenly his face was positive. "I''ll go. He won''t just fantasize that he is a director and doesn''t have talent... And then he ''directs'' a psycho who catches a bag?" "..." Jane Mo smiled. "I think you''re going to be crazy by him." "Go!" Shen Chu''s disgruntled lips. "What''s the man''s name?" Jane Mo asked casually. "Lu Haotian." "Lu Haotian..." Jian Mo chewed his name and asked Gu Beichen to check the man. I don''t know why. She thinks Shen Chu may have a play with him. ¡­¡­ LAPD. In and out of the police are full of busy "Bureau Li, this is the information for the government meeting in the afternoon." The office police officer handed a copy of the information to Li Bureau. Li nodded. "I won''t come back later. I''ll go straight to the meeting in the afternoon." The interior policeman answered, "OK." "Something happens in the Bureau, you send me a short interest..." Li got up, took his briefcase and walked out of the office. Li left the administration building, went to the parking lot, drove his own car and left the general administration. He stopped at a random restaurant. Li Ju looked around, got off the bus and went to the convenience store first. "Take this cigarette..." ¡°28¡£¡± Li Ju took out a hundred and handed it to the clerk, "can I borrow the phone in your store? My mobile phone is dead..." "Use it..." the clerk didn''t care. At the same time, he found the money. After thanking Li Ju, he picked up the phone and dialed the number. "Hello?" As soon as the phone was connected, there came the sound of iron fist. "My cell phone is dead," said Li Ju. "Let me tell you something. Don''t wait until you come back to me. You can''t find it." Iron fist narrowed his eyes and then motioned to the person on the side, "look where the phone source is?" "OK..." Iron fist took back his sight and said to Li Bureau, "it''s noon. Don''t you plan to have dinner together?" "I''ll just have something to eat next to me. I won''t go back... I have something to do in the afternoon." "Yes." "I''ll hang up first." Li Ju said, hung up the phone, thanked the clerk again and went to the restaurant next to the convenience store. Soon, the iron fist will arrive. After looking around, he sat down at the table on the back of the Li Bureau. After the waiter ordered the food, he asked in a voice that could be heard by the Li Bureau, "there''s news?" Chapter 1062 Li Ju took care of himself and put a dish into the bowl. After glancing around, he made a sound. Iron fist can also calm down and didn''t ask. Immediately, the two people began to eat their own food By now, the meal is almost over, and there are not many people in the restaurant. After Li finished eating, he called the waiter to check out. "Hello, a total of 53!" Li bureau took the money to the waiter and heard the waiter say, "wait a minute, I''ll give you the change..." "OK." Li Ju answered. When the waiter left, he wiped his mouth and said in a moderate voice: "I''m not sure all of them, but there are two people who are the same..." "Huh?" Iron fist with rice in his mouth, some can''t bolt clearly. "Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu..." Iron fist''s eyes were slightly cold, and he continued to eat without changing his face. At the same time, he asked, "the undercover?" "Yes." "The change..." the waiter came at the right time and put the taxi ticket and money on the table. After Li Ju picked it up, he calmly put it in his pocket, got up and left over the iron fist From beginning to end, the two people seemed to have no intersection. Zhao Qianyu mechanically picked a few grains of rice with chopsticks and put them in his mouth, but he looked at Li Ju''s back Because of her natural sensitivity to sound, she is much more sensitive than normal people''s ears. Because of this, she was very distressed since childhood Later, slowly, I practiced the method of automatic isolation. Just had dinner, too boring. I heard the words of a corrupt man and the man with his back. Zhao Qianyu took back his sight when Li Ju left the restaurant, took out his mobile phone, and Yu Guang took a picture looking at iron fist Just after a slight ''click'', the iron fist suddenly looked sideways. Zhao Qianyu calmly took a few photos of the meal with his mobile phone, then ordered a few times on his mobile phone as if nothing had happened and began to talk. "See, I''ll eat this at noon today..." Zhao Qianyu rolled his eyes. "I feel so depressed when I think that there are lion heads and braised meat in the company at noon, but I can''t eat them because I have to send documents!" Zhao Qianyu finished, put his mobile phone aside, looked at the dishes on the table, sighed and continued to eat. Iron fist took back his sight indifferently and called the waiter to check out When the iron fist left, Zhao Qianyu didn''t move. He just continued to eat and surf the Internet with his mobile phone. When she saw the news that Chen Yu returned home to take over the post of deputy director of the Eastern District branch, she whispered, "I said how the name sounds familiar..." Zhao Qianyu continued to eat, the corners of his mouth turned away, and the center of his eyebrows frowned. The man just said that the undercover is the one named Ye Chenyu?! Zhao Qianyu tried to recall where he had heard of the name Because in retrospect, her eating movements became slow. "Where did you hear that?" Zhao Qianyu whispered. She has always had a good memory. Unlike Chen Yu, the name Ye Chenyu was definitely not heard in any reports. But the more I think about it Zhao Qianyu couldn''t remember. Once in a while, I feel like I''m going to think of it, but I diverge from my thoughts in the last neutral. Zhao Qianyu skimmed his lips and casually picked up two mouthfuls of rice. Just as she was about to call the waiter to check out, her cell phone suddenly rang. As soon as Zhao Qianyu saw that Xiao Jing was calling, his eyes lit up like a kilowatt bulb. Quickly pick up "Haven''t you come back yet?" Xiao Jing''s cold voice came. "I''ll be right back!" Zhao Qianyu listened to Xiao Jing''s voice. Although he was indifferent to her, he still looked intoxicated. There''s no way. She can''t go to Xiao through normal channels, so she can only comfort herself first. "Don''t come back..." "Ah?!" Zhao Qianyu was stunned. "I''ll give you a holiday in the afternoon and buy your own dress," Xiao Jing''s voice said completely, "there''s a cocktail party with me in the evening..." If Zhao Qianyu just answered the phone and it was a one kilowatt light bulb, then listening to Xiao Jing asking her to accompany him to the cocktail party, it would definitely be 10000 watts bright. "Didn''t you hear me?" Seeing that Zhao Qianyu didn''t speak, Xiao Jing asked coldly. "Yes, yes..." Zhao Qianyu asked with a grin. "Is that... Dress reimbursed by the company?" "Yes." Xiao Jing answered and hung up directly. Zhao Qianyu held the mobile phone and put his hands in front of his chest In my mind, I have imagined that she accompanied Xiao Jing to the reception, and a romantic Waltz belonging to lovers surprised the whole audience At the last turn, she sprained her foot and almost fell. Mr. Xiao Jing grabbed her waist, then lifted her waist and turned it around Under the colored glass light, Xiao Jing''s black suit is just like the prince. She wore a red dress and fluttered her skirt when she was spinning Ha ha ha ha ha ha ha! Zhao Qianyu laughed like two fools and completely forgot that he was in public. Finally, we must freeze the frame under the light, and then Xiao Jing must be intoxicated by her panicked but shy beauty Then, of course, kiss wait! Zhao Qianyu''s "beautiful dream" has not been finished yet. He suddenly woke up. Xiao Jing thought of something he couldn''t figure out before the phone call. Now he thought of it for a moment. Ye Chenyu''s name is really not what she saw in the report, nor did she know it in her fan circle of friends Instead, I heard it from Gu Beichen! She stole Xiao Jing''s wallet and was caught by Gu Beichen within a few days. When the two were deeply "chatting", Gu Beichen answered the phone and mentioned the name "Chenyu". At that time, it seemed that ye Chenyu had just taken over the special police team, and the people in her circle of friends brushed it for a while. Connect all things, and then think back to the conversation between the two just then Zhao Qianyu stared in amazement ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen is sitting in Wang Qiang''s office with a cup of the best tea made by Wang Qiang in front of him. "I don''t know whether President Gu came here..." Wang Qiang asked secretly. Different from dealing with Chen Qishan, Gu Beichen and Wang Qiang are a little uncertain. Not to mention Ye Chenyu''s relationship, it''s just Gu Beichen''s position in Los Angeles. To put it bluntly... He is not high-grade in some aspects. "I never meddle in Chenyu''s task," Gu Beichen''s slender fingers held the cup and picked it up. "This time I participated." Wang Qiang''s eyes lit up as soon as he heard it Unlike others, he doesn''t have those pedantic rules. To put it bluntly, he is an immoral man who can let his people come back alive. "That''s great..." Wang Qiang grinned and began to smile. "If I had known Mr. Gu would have done it, I could have slept more these two days." Gu Beichen raised his eyes and Mo Tong looked at Wang Qiang deeply. Wang Qiang was a little hairy when he saw it, and gradually restrained his smile. "So... President Gu, what''s the problem?" "The best I can do is to help him," Gu Beichen said in a low and far-reaching voice. "But I can''t stand it. Someone will tear down the platform behind me, can''t I?" Chapter 1063 "President Gu means..." Wang Qiang''s eyes suddenly looked cold. "What do I mean? The Wang Bureau knows very well." Gu Beichen took a sip of tea. Wang Qiang''s face was solemn and silent. Gu Beichen looked at Wang Qiang with eagle eyes lightly, "I don''t want to stretch out my hand too long..." He put down his water cup, dropped his eyes slightly on a piece of tea floating in the water and said slowly, "if I stretch out my hand, I''m afraid many things will end badly." At the same time, Gu Beichen lifted his eyes and looked at Wang Qiang again. Wang Qiang was'' cluttered ''in his heart and looked embarrassed, "President Gu, such things are inevitable everywhere..." After a pause, "I have tried my best to block the eyes this time, but in the end..." "I don''t care about others. This time, Chenyu must come back!" Gu Beichen got up at the same time, "I''ll come over, but that''s just to say hello... If there''s really any turbulence in the Bureau, sometimes it''s really out of control." Wang Qiang grinned and stood up. "In fact, I''m happy to see that I can pull out the tumor." It''s just that when you pull the whole body, it''s not motionless. It''s because there''s too much movement after it''s moved. He had no choice but to take care of himself. But if Gu Beichen intervenes Wang Qiang suddenly had a little extravagant hope. After all, he is willing to see the trend of rectification. Gu Beichen didn''t say anything more. He turned and walked out Wang Qiang looked at his proud back and breathed a sigh of relief. Until Gu Beichen left the office, Wang Qiang murmured, "Ye Chenyu, it''s worth having a friend like Gu Beichen." Gu Beichen walked steadily to the elevator With a "Ding" sound, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone vibrated at the same time as the arrival sound came from the elevator. He took it out indifferently, walked into the elevator and pressed down. There was no note on the number. Gu Beichen took it up and put it in his ear. "Chen Shao, I''m Zhao Qianyu!" Zhao Qianyu''s anxious voice came from the phone. Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly cold, "what''s up?" "I''m in the company now. Can you come over?" Zhao Qianyu''s voice was dignified. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, "half an hour." "OK..." Zhao Qianyu answered. Gu Beichen hung up the phone. After the elevator arrived, he walked out with one hand. Mo''er is still the emperor. He was going back. Just Zhao Qianyu''s voice is dignified and has absolutely nothing to do with the company''s affairs. ¡­¡­ Border. "Brother Yu, it seems that the front is not the army of country M..." Qiao Rui lay down in the trees and whispered towards the equipped satellite phone. On the other side, ye Chenyu looked ahead with a high-power telescope. "It''s a local private organization, just covered by the army..." "It''s past the meeting and time..." Chen Yu looked at the time and looked dignified. Lu Xiaowei and Yang Jinyu looked at each other, and then their eyes fell in front. They can''t act rashly at the moment. If they are right, they will never be good. The disparity in the number of people, plus the weapons in each other''s hands This is a person who may be buried here long before he meets Interpol. Ye Chenyu has been paying attention to the actions of those people. After a while, he whispered, "everyone pay attention to concealment and observe the situation first..." "Yes!" "Yes..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Several people answered from the headphones. Chen Yu glanced at Ye Chenyu. He was different from the evil ruffian in the usual way. At this moment, he was full of the breath of the leader. Serious people are the most attractive At the moment, Chen Chen can feel Ye Chenyu most. As time goes by. Except Lu Xiaowei is a little weak here, everyone can say that they have experienced many times of life and death. silence. Is the only thing they can do at the moment A voice came from the front, saying the words of state M. Ye Chenyu couldn''t understand them. However, through the telescope, ye Chenyu looked at their faces and could roughly guess what had happened Suddenly A man from m country with a mirror suddenly turned back. Suddenly, the sun was refracted on his mirror and shot straight towards the hiding place of Ye Chenyu and others. Almost at the moment when the man turned around, ye Chenyu hurriedly dropped the telescope that had been set in front of his eyes All actions are instinctive, almost in a moment. Chen Yu felt a cold sweat on his back. If ye Chenyu''s reaction is just a second slow, they may all be found. The M-Man with a mirror glanced around. There was nothing but the wind blowing the thorny mountains and forests. He turned back, and ye Chenyu and other talents secretly breathed out. Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu. He was calm from beginning to end. Not because of the episode just now ¡°Go£¡¡± Ahead, someone roared and waved to everyone Those people followed the shouting people and left one after another. The tense mood of Ye Chenyu and others slowed down slightly. "Hide in place for half an hour." Ye Chenyu looked at the time and whispered. Chen Yu frowned suspiciously and wanted to ask "why"! They have delayed the meeting time because of this episode. Now they will delay another half an hour?! She wanted to ask, but she endured it under absolute obedience. Soon, she also knew why Ye Chenyu had to hide his decision for half an hour. About twenty minutes later The people who should have left all appeared from places beyond their sight, and then looked left and right after saying something to each other Chen Yu glanced at Ye Chenyu again, still indifferent. She has a lot of training experience abroad, but no matter how much training, she doesn''t have as much practical experience as ye Chenyu Chen Shuo lowered the corners of his mouth and made an uncontrolled change to Ye Chenyu. "Although I''m handsome..." Ye Chenyu''s voice came in a small voice, "but you don''t need to look at me with such infatuated eyes..." When the words fell, ye Chenyu turned his head and looked up at Chen. Chen Yu blushed immediately. Fortunately, it was covered by oil paint. Qiao Rui laughed in a low voice and said teasingly, "brother Yu, you might as well say it directly. You''re afraid you can''t bear it." "Well, it can also be understood in this way... After all, there is only such a female animal in this wild mountain!" "Ye Chenyu!" Chen Chen immediately clenched his teeth and dared not shout, "can you die without a day''s mouth?" Then she turned her head to Qiao Rui''s side and shot at him with a sharp look. Qiao Rui immediately swallowed it secretly and pretended not to see it. This side has just passed without danger. At the moment, the top floor of La emperor group is filled with a gloomy atmosphere. Gu Beichen looked at Zhao Qianyu with deep eyes and asked, "are you sure they''re talking about ye Chenyu..." Chapter 1064 "I''m sure." Zhao Qianyu said, "Chen Shao, my ears are very sensitive... I will never hear wrong." "Yes." Gu Beichen responded faintly, and a pair of ink pupils could not see to the end. Xiao Jing leaned on his desk with his arms around him, and looked at Zhao Qianyu with an unspeakable smile in his eyes. He asked her to send a message, and she brought back a message? So... He had to keep her busy anyway. "Oh, yes!" Suddenly, Zhao Qianyu screamed when he thought of something. Gu Beichen''s handsome face is so indifferent that she doesn''t have any expression because of her surprise. Just a pair of ink pupils, looking at her deeply. Zhao Qianyu quickly took out his mobile phone, opened the album and turned out the photos "I didn''t shoot the middle-aged man who broke the news, but I photographed the man who tipped him off." Zhao Qianyu''s pretty face was obviously proud. Gu Beichen took the mobile phone. Because the angle is not very good and there is glass reflection, only one third of the side face can be seen in the photo. However, there is always better than nothing! Gu Beichen sent the photo to his mobile phone, "about the appearance of the informant." "Oh..." Zhao Qianyu answered, thought about it, and roughly described the appearance of Li Bureau. Gu Beichen leaned slowly on the sofa and dialed J''s phone. "What''s the matter?" J is playing a game with Jane Jie, holding the phone and pressing the control button under his hand. "Pass the photos of the deputy of the police station to me......". "Wait a minute..." J clenched his teeth. "I have one more game to play!" "Now!" Gu Beichen''s voice became heavy and indisputable. Jian Jie glanced at J, "Daddy has something, we''ll come back later..." "Boring!" J tilted his mouth, threw the control lever into the carpet and got up, muttering something in his mouth. "Three minutes!" J said it was very and hung up. Jane Jie also put down the control lever and went to the kitchen "Grandma, do you have kiwi fruit?" Jane asked. "Yes..." Cen Lanxi asked back, "do you want to squeeze juice?" "Yes." Jane Jie smiled and nodded. CEN Lanxi took kiwi fruit and squeezed juice for Jian Jie first. "You and Xiaomo love kiwi fruit juice. It seems that they have to prepare it every day at home." CEN Lanxi actually just whispered, but she fell into Jian Jie''s ear and grinned. "Grandma..." "Huh?" Jane Jie blinked. "What fruit does daddy like?" There was something on Lanxi''s face. "In fact, daddy doesn''t particularly like..." Jane Jie pretended not to see Cen Lanxi''s embarrassment and said, "but there are some relatively like." CEN Lanxi looked at the little guy and gradually felt warm in her heart. "I''ll pay attention..." Cen Lanxi said with a smile and began to make juice for Jian Jie. She is Beichen''s mother, but what does Beichen like... It seems that she really doesn''t know. And Xiaomo, she seems to know all Xiaojie likes and dislikes. In the kitchen, one old and one small "magical" communication. Outside, J held his notebook and soon broke into the Los Angeles Police Department''s intranet. Fortunately, the photos of people above the deputy bureau are not a secret. Otherwise, he has to write a small program to prevent anti tracking inside the police station. Within three minutes, Gu Beichen received the photo sent by J. "Look, which one is it?" Gu Beichen turns the computer screen to Zhao Qianyu. Zhao Qianyu looked at it, his eyes blinking "This!" Zhao Qianyu accurately pointed to the photo of Li Bureau and said, "it''s him!" Gu Beichen''s sight fell on the computer screen. Xiao Jing didn''t know when he came over and looked at the picture. "It''s Li Bureau..." Xiao Jing said. Gu Beichen raised his eyes and glanced at Xiao Jing, then looked at Zhao Qianyu, "go out first." "Oh..." Zhao Qianyu answered and suddenly got up. However, because of the excessive force, the lower leg suddenly cramped. She screamed and fell to one side. Gu Beichen didn''t move. Zhao Qianyu thought, Xiao Jing is close. Why should he help him?! However did not! Zhao Qianyu hurriedly supported the table and stabilized his body, which was almost about to fall, with a period of resentment in his heart. Unfortunately, with Gu Beichen, she didn''t dare to make use of the topic to do something. Zhao Qianyu left the office with some embarrassment. At the moment when the door was closed, Gu Beichen''s voice was indifferent and overflowed his thin lips "Don''t like it, still stay?" Xiao Jing sat down on the sofa. "Her ability is very good. Someone must let Susan idle and have time to fall in love." "You have no interest in Susan?" Gu Beichen asked. Xiao Jing was silent and said, "I''m too familiar with each other. We all know that it''s not the right one." Xiao Jing is sometimes a very second person. He is in front of very familiar people. However, sometimes it is forgotten because of the second day. He is a man in the five Xiao Li of the night gate Without a clear head, he can''t be around the Dragon owl. "Chen Shao, what is this man going to do?" Xiao Jing asked. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and Jun''s face opened slowly and indifferently: "pull the grass well..." "That''s... it''s not good to scare the snake." Gu Beichen asked, "what''s the other meaning?" Gu Beichen was silent. "Do you need brother Xiao''s hand?" Seeing Gu Beichen''s silence, Xiao Jing asked with a dignified look. Gu Beichen shook his head. "This involves too much. The power of the night gate is in the UK. It''s better to stay out of this sensitive matter." "That......" Xiao Jing frowned. "What does Chen Shao mean?" "Who knows you best over there?" Xiao Jing drooped his eyes and thought, "to say that we know, of course, it is the Mo palace." Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a shallow smile, showing treachery. "It''s the place to supply the Mo palace. Will Shi Shaoqin agree to help?" Xiao Jing frowned. "Mo''er is pregnant. He thinks he can send a bag of melon seeds and a card?" Gu Beichen''s eyebrow tail was frivolous, and the ink pupil gradually became dark. He put down his overlapping legs and got up. "Remember Zhao Qianyu''s credit. Well, bear it next time you get angry." "Shit!" Xiao Jing immediately burst into foul language. Gu Beichen stopped and looked ahead, but his mouth was filled with a smile. Turning around, Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing who had stood up because of anger and said, "brother, they are all used to pit..." With deep meaning, Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing''s rigid face, turned with a deeper smile and walked out. Leaving Xiao Jing with a straight face, he said gnashing his teeth: "it''s really good to bear a grudge like this!" Chapter 1065 When Gu Beichen arrived at the design department, Jian Mo was discussing a design drawing with Shen Chu. He didn''t bother them, but looked at the two women in the design room with both hands "You see, it''s changed like this..." Shen Chu began to move after pondering Jian Mo''s words for a while. Jane Mo gradually brightened her eyes with her drawing, "yes, that''s what I probably mean." Shen Chu raised his eyebrows. "We two should be born with a combination of two swords in architectural design." "Yes, yes, the ''haunt'' design combination!" Jane Mo held back her smile. Shen Chu rolled his eyes. "You can laugh at this joke for a year." "Dang Dang!" When the knock came, Jian Mo and Shen Chu both looked at the glass door and saw Gu Beichen push the door and come in "Are you finished?" Asked Jane mo. Gu Beichen nodded. "I''m leaving," Jane Mo took her bag, "and asked Jin Xi to have afternoon tea." "OK..." Shen Chu answered and watched Gu Beichen and Jian Mo leave. After they left, they heaved a long sigh and began to continue drawing. Just as Jane Mo got into the car, her mobile phone rang. Seeing that it was Li Xiaoyue, she quickly picked it up, "is the trial over?" After questioning, she hurriedly asked, "what''s the result?" "Win!" Li Xiaoyue''s voice was mixed with uncontrollable joy, and even choked with excitement. "Girl, my heart is so sour when I see the party crying because of his emotional collapse due to his release in court..." Jane Mo listened to Li Xiaoyue''s excited voice and said with a smile, "you have your senior brother by your side. Aren''t you afraid of heaven and earth?" "Lie nonsense and tell the truth..." Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen driving aside. "But I like it." Jane Mo''s smile deepened. She chatted with Li Xiaoyue again and made an appointment to review the manor for dinner in the evening before hanging up the phone. "How nice..." Jian Mo sighed and looked at Gu Beichen. "Everything will be better when ye Chenyu comes back." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and saw her drooping her eyes and gently put her hand on her flat belly A soft smile rippled on her pretty face. ¡­¡­ Border. Interpol interim command. Because ye Chenyu and others had an accident and arrived late at the agreed time, the headquarters has formulated some details of the "catch the wind" plan. Ye Chenyu was eating and watching their plan. "Madder''s daughter?" Ye Chenyu frowned and looked a little black. He was Xie Qifeng, the temporary commander of the Chinese. Xie Qifeng nodded. "We have studied it. If we want to break into Mai De''s interior most effectively and quickly, we can only start from her daughter." Chen Chen looks at the photos on the computer screen It''s sexy with deep lips and deep eyes. "Maide''s daughter''s name is maiqier," Xie Qifeng said. "The news from our informant is that Maide is very fond of maiqier. It can be said that he will respond to her whenever he asks... So it''s best to start with her." "How?" Chen Yu raised his eyes and asked. Xie Qifeng and Chen Yu are old acquaintances. They used to train together in a foreign training camp for some time, but they didn''t expect to meet again in this operation. "It takes women to deal with men, and it''s men to deal with women..." Chen Chen''s face was a little strange and looked back coldly, "only you can think of such a way." Xie Qifeng felt his nose awkwardly. Ye Chenyu continued to eat, "who''s on?" "You!" Xie Qifeng''s words fell, and ye Chenyu and others were not surprised. "No!" Chen Yu immediately opposed it. Xie Qifeng looked at Chen Yu and waited for her to say the reason. "Ye Chenyu worked undercover. Later, when he returned to the Bureau, many people should know..." there was a trace of imperceptible emotion in Chen''s voice. "He will go? I''m afraid he will only be recognized faster." "First of all, I don''t care if I want to pass the battle with Maggie in my pants..." said Xie Qier He looked around and said, "at present, Chenyu and Qiao Rui are the most suitable... But no one here is more suitable than Chenyu in terms of the experience of dealing with those people." "But he is equivalent to exposure!" Chen Yu insisted. Ye Chenyu stopped eating, put his arm on the back of the chair and looked at Chen Yu. Others also looked at Chen. Chen Yu frowned slightly, and some didn''t realize why they were looking at her. "Am I wrong?" Chen Yu''s face sank. Although they crossed the border this time just to play a role that the other party didn''t know. However, letting Ye Chenyu go deep into Mai De is basically sending sheep into the mouth of a tiger. "It is because of his exposure that some articles can be done..." Xie Qifeng looked at Chen and said, "Xiao, you should be very clear that Infernal Affairs is the highest anti undercover." Don''t need to say too much. Of course Chen understands Xie Qifeng''s meaning. But When Chen Yu thought, he turned and looked at Ye Chenyu. A scream of "ah" came, and Interpol, who were originally studying other things, looked at it one after another. Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu''s face, which suddenly appeared in front of him, and suddenly became angry with shame. But before she got angry, she listened to Ye Chenyu''s ruffian smile and said, "so opposed to me going... Are you worried about my danger, or do you think it''s uncomfortable for me to get close to Maggie?" "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth and suddenly turned red. When he felt Ye Chenyu''s smiling eyes, Chen Yu suddenly woke up. "I wish Maggie could like your mouth!" Chen Shuo clenched his teeth coldly, glanced at Ye Chenyu, turned and went to another place. Yang Jinyu looked at Chen Yu''s back and ye Chenyu. He sighed secretly, lowered his eyes and continued to eat. Qiao Rui looks ambiguous and winks at Ye Chenyu "How do you feel like you''ve been climbing the mountain all night? Sister Yu''s painting style is wrong?!" Lu Xiaowei pushed his glasses and whispered. Qiao Rui looked at Lu Xiaowei, pulled a deep smile on one side of his mouth, and didn''t say anything. "Of course, our plan is like this," Xie Qifeng said, leaning against the table. "It depends on you." The so-called "plan is not as fast as change", no one can guarantee that ye Chenyu''s success rate will be several percent if he starts from Maggie. It''s possible to pull the whole body. In the end, not only did he not break into macdow quickly, but he startled the snake. "You think about it," Xie Qifeng looked at the time. "You also have a rest later and give me the answer in the evening." "OK..." Ye Chenyu answered. After eating the rest of the meal, he took two bottles of water and went out. From a distance, ye Chenyu saw Chen Yu with his hands in his trouser pockets, leaning against the tree trunk and hanging his head... I don''t know what he was thinking?! Chapter 1066 Ye Chenyu''s eyes were deep and walked over When I heard the sound, I stopped thinking. Seeing that it was Ye Chenyu, she faintly restrained her mind after a strange scratch in the depths of her eyes. Ye Chenyu threw a bottle of water to Chen. "Don''t you go to rest?" Chen Yu caught it, opened it and drank. He didn''t speak. "The action should start at any time. Our rest time is only half a day." Ye Chenyu sat on the ground on the side slope. He opened the water and drank. His eyes fell on the front and said, "in fact, Xie Qifeng''s plan is the fastest." Chen Yu still didn''t speak, just screwed up the bottle cover Ye Chenyu looked at her movements, and it was clear that she had tightened it, but she seemed not to be satisfied and turned the bottle cap with great strength. The corners of his mouth put on an evil smile, and ye Chenyu took back his eyes, "Hey, are you really worried about me?" "Ye Chenyu, this is no joke!" Chen Yu was bitten by Ye Chenyu''s ruffians. She stood up straight and stared at him condescending. However, ye Chenyu was still dead. It made people feel that a punch hit the cotton and bounced back. Ye Chenyu simply lay down The soft grass becomes very thick because it is not trimmed. Lie on it and bask in the sun If you don''t think about this mission, it''s quite pleasant. Ye Chenyu closed his eyes, pretended to sleep and said slowly, "before coming, who didn''t know the danger of this task?" There was no tense atmosphere in the gentle questioning. It was casual. "Chen Yu, our system..." Ye Chenyu''s voice was still calm. "The armed police was the first line of defense, the special police followed, and the criminal police followed closely." Slowly opened his eyes, ye Chenyu''s eyes became deep and bottomless, "dangerous?" He whispered and turned his head to Chen''s line of sight. "It''s dangerous. Can we not go?" A rhetorical question left Chen speechless. "Danger..." Ye Chenyu sighed as he looked back. He smiled indifferently at the corners of his mouth, "which day is not dangerous for me these years?" Chen Yu''s breath gradually converged. She sat cross legged two steps next to Ye Chenyu. "Tell me about your years of undercover?" Chen Yu opened his mouth. Ye Chenyu smiled, looked at Chen Chen and asked with a grin, "sister Chen, do you want to know about me so much?" With provocative and ambiguous words, I don''t know convergence at all. Chen Yu immediately changed his face, grabbed a handful of fallen dead leaves from the ground and threw them into Ye Chenyu''s face "Do you feel sick when you don''t talk for three minutes?" "No, it''s only for you..." Ye Chenyu said, and made a noise with Chen Yu. "Asshole!" Chen Chen gritted his teeth and his face was also dark. However, there was an unspeakable feeling in his heart She has always been a strong temper since what happened when she was a child. Later, because of grade jumping and training, I didn''t lose to men. Gradually, she seemed to give people a feeling of being superior. Naturally, no one dared to joke with Ye Chenyu like this. Chen Yu also learned from ye Chenyu, lying on the grass, his hands folded under his head, looking at the blue sky "In fact, I''m lucky to be undercover..." Ye Chenyu closed his eyes again and said faintly, "although I have to complete many tasks by myself, I have a friend like Gu Beichen." "He helped you?" Chen Yu looked sideways at Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu closed his eyes and shook his head. "The road is my own choice. He helps me. Sooner or later, I will die faster." Chen Yu took back his sight, "also, only people with real skills can accumulate more experience." "Maybe I was young and energetic at that time. I always felt that I could catch several criminal gangs and I was very strong..." Ye Chenyu pulled down the corners of his mouth with self mockery. "But the first task, I was close to death." Chen Yu was silent. Although she has never been undercover, the training and criminal psychology she needs to participate in are very familiar with the profession of "undercover". "Once when I was involved in a fire fight, I had to think about not exposing my identity, and I had to leave my hand for the police..." Ye Chenyu crossed the bloody scene in his mind, and there was a solemn emotion on his face. "At that moment, I suddenly realized what the undercover always said..." Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu again. Inexplicably, he just felt that the atmosphere around him was too depressed to breathe. "I''m afraid one day..." Ye Chenyu said slowly with his lips gently, "... I died either in the hands of my brother or in the hands of my colleagues!" Chen Chen has a sad color at the bottom of his eyes. This is the sorrow of being undercover Whether you lose yourself in the end or not, you will face two situations The police didn''t know you were an undercover. There is another kind of Your identity was exposed and brutally tortured by the undercover party... In the end, you either betrayed justice or died in inhuman torture. Ye Chenyu said with his eyes closed, and there was no complete answer. East and West. Some confusion However, Chen Yu carefully heard several bloody storms. Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu quietly. Looking at him was like telling a story. He said the danger when he was undercover. His heart seemed to be pulled by a thin thread Gradually, the line of sight becomes blurred. Ye Chenyu suddenly stopped talking. He slowly opened his eyes Looking at the blue sky, ye Chenyu sighed, "Chen, I''m a normal man..." Chen Yu''s blurred thoughts closed and looked at Ye Chenyu. "Being obsessed by a woman or a beautiful woman..." Ye Chenyu tilted his head to her line of sight and said with a sigh smile, "I can''t bear it!" "Teng" once, Chen Yu''s face was boiling hot in an instant. However, I have been teased more times Chen Yu also had no initial anger, but coldly threw Ye Chenyu a white eye. Ye Chenyu smiled and looked back. "So, I can go back to the police station and mix with a captain. It''s also an accident." When people don''t know it, they do it at all. And those who really sit and talk without backache are those who use their mouths "Have you ever regretted it?" Chen Yu asked curiously. "What have you done? What can you regret..." Ye Chenyu said casually. "People, don''t always take the present to regret the past, and then use the future to regret the present." Chen Yu pondered Ye Chenyu''s words. After a while, he found that the man couldn''t speak for a while, so he began to fill her with soul chicken soup. "Ye Chenyu..." "Huh?" Ye Chenyu answered faintly. Chen Chen sat up, stared at Ye Chenyu deeply and asked, "are you really going to get close to Maggie?" Chapter 1067 "HMM..." Ye Chenyu answered lazily. Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu in this way and felt a little dignified. "Ye Chenyu, our tough attack may not be successful, but there is at least a 50-60% chance." After a pause, she continued, "but when you are close to Maggie, it''s still when your identity has been exposed..." Chen Yu tried to stop talking. Generally speaking, she said that this mission involved too many lives. If the wind puppet group was removed, it would not only save those children. To put it mildly She is the captain of the criminal police team of the police station and a member of the task force. Either way, she shouldn''t have said such irrational words. Ye Chenyu leaned down, his arms supporting the ground, his head in his hands and looked at Chen Yu "Why are you looking at me like that?" Chen Yu frowned slightly, "I know I shouldn''t say that." Chen hung her shoulders and washed away the paint on her face. Even without makeup, it didn''t affect her beautiful appearance. "Sister Yu..." Ye Chenyu smiled at the corner of his mouth, and his eyes were full of teasing. Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu with a wary face and felt that the man couldn''t spit Ivory out of the dog''s mouth. Sure enough "If you don''t want me to go, or I won''t go?" Ye Chenyu said with a smile, "of course, it''s one thing to worry about my danger. In addition, how can we start from jealousy?!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu glared at Ye Chenyu and stood up on the ground. After a pause, he turned and walked to the temporary lounge in front of him "I''m leaving now?" Ye Chenyu''s tone is still the tone of evil spirit flirting. "Hum, don''t you flirt back?" Ye Chenyu grinned, looked at Chen''s back and said, "right, it''s good to joke occasionally... It''s boring to have to be high above yourself." Chen Yu stopped and looked ahead for a while before turning around. "Ye Chenyu..." Ye Chenyu sat up, and his face was always his usual evil smile. "Shall we make an agreement?" Chen asked. "I''ll come back safely. Will you marry me?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth and looked at Ye Chenyu. He really didn''t know what to say about this man. But at this moment Chen Yu clearly felt that she was not so disgusted with Ye Chenyu''s "flirting". At least, I think this is Ye Chenyu! "If you come back safely..." Chen Zhen''s eyes flashed a touch of cunning, "I''ll raise you." Now, ye Chenyu''s mouth twitched Chen Yu looked at him with a smile on his face. "I''m a rich woman... I have 20% of the shares of Chen group. I''ll pay for the wine money from Gu Beichen!" Ye Chenyu has a headache. This woman Also interesting! Chen Yu smiled provocatively at Ye Chenyu and turned around This time, she didn''t stop and walked directly to the rest area. In fact, what she just wanted to make an appointment was not this But as soon as ye Chenyu said that, she also had a joking heart. Yeah, why are you so nervous? She became a policeman not for revenge... But to fulfill uncle Lin''s responsibility for this profession. Of course It was also the responsibility she was willing to undertake later. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. Under the surface of prosperity and peace, it is created by many people at the expense of themselves. The news of Los Angeles was swept by Li Xiaoyue''s lawsuit today Although he won, the party "lost" his youth and future, which no one can compensate. However, the parties are lucky. Because the two people who brought a lawsuit against him, one is the cousin of the emperor''s president and the other is the best friend of the emperor''s president''s wife. Gu Beichen gave Li Xiaoyue only one sentence, "in three months, it depends on your ability... Give you an interview with the emperor." We can''t recover the lost life, but we can face the future life positively from this moment. As for whether he will abandon himself or face life again, it depends on himself "Xiao Yue played beautifully in this court today." Chu Zixiao sat lazily on the sofa and his eyes fell on Jian Mo who was talking to Cen Lanxi. "It seems that Mo Mo and grandma get along well..." "Yes." Gu Beichen also looked, "Mo''er has always been like this and knows what he wants." "Yes!" Chu Zixiao took back his sight and turned back to the topic just now, "however, there are some problems left over by this court." "Shaochen told me..." Gu Beichen took tea and drank, "since it''s important this time, let''s go together!" Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen and looked puzzled. Gu Beichen didn''t say it deeply, but the eagle''s eyes were slightly selected. Mo Tong looked at Chu Zixiao deeply and asked, "it''s almost all about Zhangjia... In the end, it has nothing to do with Zhang Nian." Referring to Zhang Nian, Chu Zixiao''s face became a little bad. Gu Beichen looked at Chu Zixiao''s face and didn''t say anything more Two people''s affairs, anyway, are those two people''s. Others can remind and advise, but they can''t participate. "The fruit is cut, come and eat..." Jane Mo shouted at the right time. "I''ll make a pot of fruit tea again..." Cen Lanxi smiled and walked to the kitchen. Since Jane Mo lived in the manor, aunt LAN and aunt Luo have become the first to fight. Cen Lanxi does everything himself. She thought, if she wants to repair her relationship with her son, she must be kind to her daughter-in-law She figured it out now. Be strong all your life. When you get old at last, nothing is better than having children around you. "I''ll call Shaoqin..." Gu Beichen said to Jian Mo, then took his cell phone and went outside. The afternoon sun was a little hot, but Gu Beichen didn''t seem to feel it. He just went to a shade with one hand. Shi Shaoqin looks at the call, looks a little deeper, and signals Qingqing to take star to play first. "Stone!" When star saw that Shi Shaoqin didn''t intend to be with him, his pink face puffed up. Shi Shaoqin squatted down and said softly, "stone answers the phone, huh?" Star looked at the phone shaking in Shi Shaoqin''s hand, nodded and left with Qingqing. Shi Shaoqin looked at Star deeply, picked up the phone and put it in his ear "There''s one thing," Gu Beichen said directly, "I need your help." Shi Shaoqin looked a little deeper. "Why do you think I''ll let you use it?" "Mo''er is pregnant, as a gift..." Gu Beichen is still indifferent. Shi Shaoqin sniffed coldly, "I seem to have given you a gift." "That''s what you sent for Xiao Yan," Gu Beichen said slightly. "Where''s your share?!" Shi Shaoqin frowned "Mo''er lost Xiao Yan because of your negligence, so she can get pregnant for so long..." Gu Beichen said calmly, "don''t you think you should make some compensation?" "Gu Beichen," said Shi Shaoqin in a slightly cold voice, "when did you become so shameless?" Chapter 1068 Gu Beichen looked at the front with deep eyes and said slowly, "don''t do it when you don''t need it." Indifference, there is no emotion, as if taken for granted. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, and a trace of unclear emotion crossed the bottom of his eyes. "What''s up?" Shi Shaoqin asked indifferently. "Wind puppet group, madder!" As soon as Shi Shaoqin heard this, he frowned, "how can you have anything to do with him?" "There''s a very important person on a mission." Gu Beichen said calmly. "Ye Chenyu?" Shi Shaoqin asked, but he was obviously sure. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and his thin lips spilled a sneer, "you still know my things very well." Shi Shaoqin was silent and then said, "let the hand of a dark world help the police deal with a criminal gang... Don''t you think it''s ridiculous?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak immediately, but the ink pupil fell on the flower bed in front of him Beauty Yu opened just in time, and the decor was enchanting. Sometimes, if you don''t pay attention, you can regard beauty Yu as a poppy "You are the only one who can do this thing without fail." Gu Beichen''s voice was a little heavy. Shi Shaoqin did not speak immediately. The dark world has the rules of the dark world. Mo palace has a position that can not be ignored in the dark world, which is inseparable from its operation over the years. But if you help the police Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed gently and opened slowly when they became a line. "Shaoqin," Gu Beichen said again, "if he can come back safely, Mo''er will be very happy." In a word, what excuses and reasons do you need? Gu Beichen knew very well that if Shenshi Shaoqin wanted to agree to this matter, he would move out of Mo''er Shi Shaoqin also understood that if Gu Beichen moved out Jianmo, he had no reason to refuse! Shi Shaoqin said nothing and hung up. Gu Beichen didn''t fight again. He just looked at Yu Meimei''s ink pupil and gradually became dark and bottomless. "Stone..." When star saw Shi Shaoqin coming to his side, he grinned and began to sell cute. Shi Shaoqin squatted down beside him and looked at his tender and distressed little face. While his eyes were soft, he sighed secretly. Because you seem to be restrained too much Shi Shaoqin said secretly. He looked at Star happily playing with the sand. While his eyes were soft, his smile deepened. Even if you are restrained, because you... Don''t seem to feel anything?! Shi Shaoqin sits down next to star and plays with star with peaceful eyes. The dissatisfaction left by just talking to Gu Beichen on the phone also gradually disappears in the passage of time ¡­¡­ The curtain of the dressing room was opened with a crash. Zhao Qianyu came out wearing a red wipe * and a long skirt meandering to the ground "Miss, you look good in this red." The stylist looked at Zhao Qianyu and said with admiration, "your skin is pink and tender white. This color simply sets off your skin more delicate." Although stylists are suspected of exaggerating, Zhao Qianyu is really suitable for red. She is very beautiful and has a proud temperament... She completely subdues red. "Very nice?" Zhao Qianyu asked with an eyebrow. The stylist nodded. "Look," she motioned for a full-length mirror, "it''s not my nonsense!" Zhao Qianyu looked at himself in the mirror and saw peach blossoms in his eyes Of course, she knows the effect of wearing red. It''s because she knows that she chose this color. "Do you think I have a problem seducing men like this?" Zhao Qianyu asked boldly. The stylist pursed his mouth and smiled, "you must catch it with your hand..." "Just for your words, I''ll take this one." Zhao Qianyu said, and then looked at himself in the mirror. His whole face was filled with a happy smile. Zhao Qianyu made a simple shape in the store. It took a lot of time to report back to the emperor at noon. When Zhao Qianyu finished modeling, it was already more than five o''clock She doesn''t expect Xiao Jing to take the initiative to find her. After finishing the modeling, Zhao Qianyu called Xiao Jing, "I''m ready here..." "Yes!" Xiao Jing answered indifferently. Zhao Qianyu bared his teeth, shrugged at Xiao Jing''s indifference and said, "aren''t you going to pick me up? I won''t be allowed to meet you alone?" Xiao Jing didn''t speak. "Who doesn''t go with his girlfriend, but needs to meet by himself?" Zhao Qianyu''s voice was a little muttering. "Come out!" Xiao Jing''s cold voice overflowed and hung up immediately. Zhao Qianyu didn''t know what the situation was. He didn''t even react. There was a "beep beep" hang up sound in his mobile phone. Slightly frowned, "come out?!" Zhao Qianyu chewed Xiao Jing''s last words She lifted her skirt slightly and walked to the door with curiosity. Just outside the modeling shop, a silver Maserati stopped there "Changed trains?" Zhao Qianyu whispered and went out of the modeling shop with doubts. Instead of getting on the bus directly, she bent down and looked inside through the window... To make sure whether it was Xiao Jing. Xiao Jing felt the figure approaching and didn''t see him get on the bus. He frowned slightly and put down the window. He turned his head and said, "don''t you get on the bus?" After that, Xiao Jing''s sight just fell on Zhao Qianyu''s eyes With a slight frown, Xiao Jing took back his sight. Zhao Qianyu opened the door and got into the car. He saw that Xiao Jing didn''t even look at her indifferently, and turned his mouth secretly Why are you so cold when such a big beauty gets on the bus?! Zhao Qianyu turned over his eyes and put Coral Orange Lip Glaze on his mouth. Sexy, No. Xiao Jinggang just wanted to start the car and suddenly stopped. Eccentric head Just when Zhao Qianyu thought he finally noticed her beauty, Xiao Jing said indifferently, "just wear these shoes?" "What shoes?" Zhao Qianyu didn''t react to the difference between Xiao Jing''s expectation and reality. Xiao Jingwei sank his face and his sight dropped 45 degrees Zhao Qianyu looked along his line of sight and saw that he was wearing slippers from a modeling shop. He was embarrassed and wanted to find a ground seam to drill in "That... Ha ha!" Zhao Qianyu got off the car in silence. Zhao Qianyu walked to the modeling shop with some desire to cry and no tears. He was disgusted by the stylist hundreds of times Don''t remind her! Now It''s not amazing to Xiao Jing, but it''s so embarrassing. Zhao Qianyu inhaled and angrily pushed open the door of the modeling store. At the right time, the stylist who served before hurried out with a pair of hot gold thin high heels Seeing Zhao Qianyu coming in, he hurriedly said, "Miss, you forgot to change your shoes!" Zhao Qianyu''s face was dark, "I know!" Chapter 1069 After changing his shoes, Zhao Qianyu got into the car angrily. Because of this episode, all her fantasies have become No, yes, think, act! In the past, before Jian Mo, most of these receptions were attended by Gu Beichen and his gossip girlfriend Later, after understanding the feelings with Jane Mo, Gu Beichen basically came with Xiao Jing. Once, the celebrity circle spread something about the relationship between their two CPS Zhao Qianyu falsely supported the door with his arm, holding his cheek in his hand, and his vision slightly deviated to the outside of the window Thinking about Xiao Jing''s past. Zhao Qianyu hasn''t missed anything about him all these years. For example, the "scandal" with Gu Beichen and the misunderstanding of Xiao Jing by the outside world Zhao Qianyu put down his hand and leaned back slowly on the seat. His lips fell gently because they were trapped in thoughts. Xiao Jing glanced at Zhao Qianyu, who was suddenly quiet. His eyes were deep and took back his sight. After he took it back, Zhao Qianyu looked at him inexplicably. Seeing him driving seriously, he sighed and took back his sight Speechless all the way to the reception site, is a private manor. Because the host is a famous family in Los Angeles. All the people invited tonight are also influential figures in Los Angeles. Naturally, the media will not miss such an opportunity... Long guns and short guns have been set up outside for a long time. "Xiao Jing, vice president of the emperor?" In the media crowd, I don''t know who shouted. Suddenly, most of the media''s attention fell on Xiao Jing''s side. After Xiao Jing parked the car, the gentleman went to Zhao Qianyu and opened the door. Zhao Qianyu got out of the car under a pile of flash lights and put away the calm just now At this moment, her mouth was filled with a faint smile. After Xiao Jing took her out of the car, she took his arm. All the actions are natural and not artificial. Even the smile on the face is commendable, so that people can''t pick out any mistakes. Xiao Jingyou has 183 and Zhao Qianyu has 175 in high-heeled shoes. One black and one red walked calmly under the flash, which gave people an illusion. "Who is this woman?" "Xiao Jing basically has no scandal, and occasionally just brings Susan here... Unexpectedly, he has changed his face today." "This woman is very beautiful and has good temperament... Isn''t she a new lover?" "It''s said that Xiao Jing has an exclusive Secretary recently. Should it be her?!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± "It has been said that Xiao Jing is suffering. This is because CP is gone. Find a woman to wash white?" Suddenly, there was a sound in the crowd. The crowd was silent, then they took the camera in their hands and took pictures of Xiao Jing and Zhao Qianyu crazily Zhao Qianyu smiled calmly at the corners of his mouth, but gradually, he couldn''t hold back. Fortunately, after entering the manor, there was no crazy media. Xiao Jing gave her a cold look, "pay attention to your manners..." "My ears are very sensitive!" Zhao Qianyu quietly picked his eyes at Xiao Jing. Xiao Jingwei frowned invisibly and was speechless about Zhao Qianyu''s "chicken and Duck Talk". Zhao Qianyu converged his sight and continued to walk to the manor with Xiao Jing "People say you''re washing white with me." Zhao Qianyu said with some charming eyes, "Hey, do you want to know what they mean?" Xiao Jing glanced at Zhao Qianyu and saw her smiling at the corners of her mouth. "They said, you are a little attacked, that is, President Gu is straightened by Jian mo..." the smile in Zhao Qianyu''s tone can''t hide, "so you can only ask me to wash white, which means you''re not a little hurt!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Xiao Jing stopped, turned his eyebrows and looked at Zhao Qianyu. His face was shrouded in a thick haze. "Why are you looking at me like this?" Zhao Qianyu continued to hold back his smile. "It''s not what I said..." There was a strange emotion in the bottom of Xiao Jing''s eyes, which was fleeting. "What they said is also right..." Xiao Jing gently opened his lips and said slowly, with a far-reaching voice. "Huh?" Zhao Qianyu was puzzled with a slightly stiff smile. Xiao Jing leaned over slightly. When his face was almost close to Zhao Qianyu, he said slowly and in a far-reaching voice: "I said..." His breath spread on Zhao Qianyu''s face, warm and crisp. Zhao Qianyu was a little confused for a moment, and his little heart jumped violently. "What they say is true!" Xiao Jing looked at Zhao Qianyu''s blurred appearance and said seriously while his eyes crossed the bad smile. Zhao Qianyu really wants to slap Xiao Jing. She hasn''t burst her maiden heart yet, so she poured it down with a basin of cold water. Zhao Jingyu stood up and hardly smiled again Zhao Qianyu instinctively followed him. "It''s okay, even if you''re bent... If Jane Mo can break straight Gu, I don''t believe I can''t break straight you!" Zhao Qianyu took a hard look at Xiao Jing, gnashing his teeth, showing provocation. Xiao Jing''s eyes gradually deepened, and a cold smile crossed the corner of his mouth. He didn''t say anything more. ¡­¡­ Night, for a prosperous city, is the beginning of life. For ye Chenyu and others at the border, it is also the beginning of the action. Xie Qifeng said some details of the operation in detail. At the end, he looked at Ye Chenyu, who was relaxed from beginning to end "The insider has given the news. At noon tomorrow, Maggie will appear at the Bailemen in Yangon..." Xie Qifeng said. "This is the only chance to get close to her." "Where''s the money?" Ye Chenyu asked. Xie Qifeng motioned to one of the interpols and saw that the man took a black handbag and put it in front of Ye Chenyu. "There are 100000 dollars in it." Xie Qifeng said, "tomorrow we''ll arrange people at Bailemen. I''m afraid you''ll suffer a little." Ye Chenyu had an evil smile in his mouth. He was not surprised that he would suffer. Chen Chen and others looked at Ye Chenyu, with varying degrees of concern in their eyes. Undercover identity exposure, and then do anti undercover. It''s not easy to deceive people But women are sometimes smart, but most of them are emotional animals. Naturally, the defense line is easier to break. "Yes." Ye Chenyu answered faintly, without too much emotional reaction. "The action is scheduled from 10:00 to 11:00 tomorrow morning..." Xie Qifeng looked around. "You can have a good rest tonight." "Qiao Rui, let''s play..." Ye Chenyu pulled out a cigarette and lit it. Xie Qifeng frowned, and Chen Yu suddenly stood up. Xie Qifeng looked at Chen Yu and asked Ye Chenyu, "why?" Chen Yu also looked at Ye Chenyu tightly. A pair of apricot eyes were about to burst out fire. Ye Chenyu looked at Xie Qifeng with evil eyes, and then his eyes fell on Chen Yu''s face. He opened his mouth with a full ruffian flavor: "I''m afraid she loves me too much and will turn back and act out of control... Let Maggie see a joke." Chapter 1070 Ye Chenyu seemed to be joking, but it was not a joke. Everyone looked at him and just wanted to throw him six dots! Chen Chen really wanted to raise his foot and kick ye Chenyu over. If it hadn''t been for the two days of "getting along day and night", she knew that ye Chenyu was a man who owed his mouth Qiao Rui held back his smile. Anyway, he has seen nothing strange about the "thing" between brother Yu and sister Yu. Lu Xiaowei likes Ye Chenyu''s tune very much now The feeling of winning thousands of miles between light wind and light clouds, especially pulling! Yang Jinyu''s sight fell on Chen Yu faintly. It was only one eye, and he hung his eyes to continue the things in his hand. It was Xie Qifeng who just came into contact with Ye Chenyu. He believed what he said and looked at Chen Yu. There were questions about human nature gossip in the bottom of his eyes. Chen was too lazy to explain. After taking a few deep breaths, he gritted his teeth and asked word by word, "I don''t think there''s any problem with my going!" "I said yes," Ye Chenyu glanced at Chen Yu. His eyes were not always indifferent. He became sharp and speechless and said slowly, "that''s Yes!" Chen Yu opened his mouth and wanted to say something else. But when he came into contact with Ye Chenyu''s warning line of sight, he turned his words in his mouth and didn''t say it. Xie Qifeng looked at Chen Yu deeply. In the end, I have trained together before, and I still know Chen Yu''s temperament very well. This is not a woman who can accept arrogance. In addition, she has strong abilities in all aspects. Under her pride, she naturally forms a dominant position many times Over time, it seemed that no one''s words could convince her. Unexpectedly Xie Qifeng looked at Ye Chenyu again and smiled at the corners of his mouth. Maybe it''s one thing down to one thing?! "There''s no problem on my side," Xie Qifeng said. "It''s about action and you. Let Chen go. It''s just our suggestion... If you think Qiao Rui is more suitable, OK!" Everyone has no opinion. After all, ye Chenyu went undercover this time. Interpol doesn''t have much say. On Ye Chenyu''s side, he is the team leader. He has no opinion. What opinion can others have. "Chenyu, let''s talk about the process in detail..." Xie Qifeng looked around. "Let''s go first." His words fell, and everyone stood up and saluted and left the temporary charge center. Chen Yu put his hands in the trouser pockets of his combat clothes. She is very good-looking, coupled with a sense of heroism, the whole person exudes the charm that urban women don''t have in the night. "Sister Yu," Qiao Rui came forward, "are you worried about brother Yu?" "Shouldn''t I worry?" Chen Yu glanced sideways, stopped and sat down on a stone. Qiao Rui sat cross legged aside Because everyone had a rest in the afternoon, I''m in good spirits at the moment. "Brother Yu, we were not convinced at first." Qiao Rui hung his eyes and played with the grass. "It''s just that he''s been together for a long time... In fact, he''s really worth paying." Chen Chen knows about ye Chenyu''s entry into the special police force, and she also knows the "rumors" spread internally. "Men rely on force..." Chen zhe said deliberately. There was an inexplicable resistance in her heart, as if she didn''t want to chill some aspects of Ye Chenyu. For example Personal charm! "But we are willing to let him fight!" Qiao Rui grinned, "if you fight with brother Yu, you will find many shortcomings. Really..." When he arrived, he also looked at Chen Yu with an aggravated tone. "Sometimes he can''t be convinced. No amount of training can be compared with practical experience." Chen Yu looks at Qiao Rui. There was a light shining in his eyes. That kind of worship was in his heart, and there was no need to hide it at all. "I admit what you said..." Chen Yu looked back and looked ahead, "but have you forgotten... No matter how strong you are, you will be hurt." "But we are high-risk occupations!" Qiao Rui answered easily. Chen Yu looks at Qiao Rui again and feels unspeakable in his heart. "It''s because of the high risk that brother Yu wants him to take the lead..." Qiao Rui said with a smile, "because he can be in the scope of his own control, not out of control." After a pause, Qiao Rui said seriously, "the most important thing is that he doesn''t want his people to get hurt..." No matter where you work, there is no better reason for people below to feel happy at work than if you have a leader who thinks of you wholeheartedly. Besides, it is still such a high-risk occupation. "But he chose you..." Chen zhe said deliberately. Qiao Rui shrugged, smiled and replied, "that''s why he wants to minimize the danger." "I don''t believe my ability..." Chen Chen gritted his teeth. Qiao Rui looked at Chen Yu and smiled more and more brightly. "Sister Yu, why don''t you think about it? In fact... He just doesn''t want you to get hurt!" In a word, Chen Chen''s whole watch froze. At that moment, she couldn''t tell how she felt Throbbing?! Beckoning?! beat?! Or... All the emotions piled up in the heart, which made her confused. Qiao Rui stared at Chen Yu deeply, "although I don''t know what you and brother Yu have reached, or what secrets... But I know brother Yu, he doesn''t want you to get hurt, at least... This time!" After that, Qiao Rui took another deep look at Chen Yu, then got up and walked to the rest area "Good night, sister Yu!" Qiao Rui''s head wouldn''t wave his hand towards the back, and a smile was in the corner of his mouth. Chen Yu watched Qiao Rui leave like this. Gradually, he was blocked with something in his heart. He wanted to vent, but he hoped to precipitate in the bottom of his heart. What kind of person is Ye Chenyu? He has done a lot for everyone, but he uses his "unique" way to let everyone know that there is no burden to thank him. Such a good, not found Isn''t he unwilling?! Chen Yu''s nose suddenly feels a little sour. At night, a thin layer of water mist was dense in the eyes The softest place in his heart was touched, and that feeling made Chen gradually smile at the corners of his mouth. Taking back his sight on Qiao Rui''s back, Chen Yu looks at the temporary command center. Obviously, she couldn''t see anything, but at that moment, her heartbeat seemed to come out of the * cavity. Chen Yu just sat on the stone and looked at the command center and forgot his reaction From a distance, Yang Jinyu leaned against a tree trunk, glanced at Chen, followed her line of sight and finally fell on the command center. With a faint sigh, Yang Jinyu took back his sight and lit a cigarette. Loneliness and loneliness linger around. Yang Jinyu suddenly thought of a sentence that was very popular on the Internet Lonely, with smoke! The wind blew gently on summer night. The "Silence" outside makes people feel less nervous. In the command center, Xie Qifeng looked at Ye Chenyu with soot and asked in a dignified voice, "do you know what you may face this time?" Chapter 1071 Ye Chenyu''s action of popping the ash slowed down slightly, and then slowly raised his eyes and smiled at Xie Qifeng. His smile is a habitual evil ruffian, which makes people look annoying. Especially when it was so heavy, even Xie Qifeng wanted to punch him and break up the smile on his face "Poison sample..." Two words, slowly and casually spilled over Ye Chenyu''s lips, even with a faint smile. Xie Qifeng turned his eyes, supported the table with one hand and looked at Ye Chenyu with one hand on his hips. "I said, can''t you be serious?" Ye Chenyu took a breath of smoke and spit out smoke. "There''s no way. If you mix more, you''ll forget to be serious." What he said is true. A person who wanders in the dark world every day for many years wants to be serious and forgets. Xie Qifeng sighed heavily, leaned against the table, put his arms around *, and said earnestly, "you should know very well that if there is a worried accident, you won''t be tolerant of you because you go undercover." Ye Chenyu extinguished the cigarette butts in the ashtray and raised his eyes: "I know." Then he got up and went out "At the moment, no matter how many plans are idle, let''s act according to the circumstances..." Ye Chenyu said casually. "Anyway, Maide''s access to the Internet is the first thing." Ye Chenyu''s words fell, and the man had left the temporary command center. In the small room, Xie Qifeng was the only one left. He tilted his head and looked at the cigarette butts that had not been completely extinguished, and this wisp of green smoke was rising "Everything is going well!" Xie Qifeng said softly. No one responded to him, and he just wanted to give himself a thought ¡­¡­ Mo palace. The morning comes under the sun paved sea. As star grows up day by day, the little guy is now very energetic. Shi juechi and Shi Shaoqin sat under the umbrella and ate breakfast. From time to time, their eyes fell on the small figure of star playing. "I hear you''re going out?" Shi juechi looked back at Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin looked at star and stumbled over himself. He got angry and began to wipe the sand on his face. On his beautiful face, he waved a spoiled smile. "Yes." With a faint response, he looked at the stone Jue Chi, "star, I''m not going to bring it." "Star hasn''t left you. Are you sure you can stay?" Shi juechi asked with a slight frown, wondering at the bottom of his eyes. He was surprised. After all, star has never left Shaoqin, big and small, and has unclear dependence on each other. At the right time, star turned to Shi Shaoqin and grinned at him. Shi Shaoqin smiled softly, and star continued to play with satisfaction Shi juechi now has a fun, that is, watching the interaction between star and Shi Shaoqin. There is always a feeling, back in the past, that gentle enough to make people feel too beautiful Shaoqin. "It''s a little dangerous this time. Star is still young, and I''m not going to let him participate..." Shi Shaoqin said, "I''m not at ease here in the Mo palace. Take star out for a walk!" Shi juechi was more confused, but he didn''t say anything more. "OK..." Shi Jue Chi answered. Shi Shaoqin got up and went to star with steady steps "Go wash and have breakfast, huh?" Star looked at the beach toys he had spread out and was reluctant. He blinked and began to sell Meng towards Shi Shaoqin in an attempt to continue playing. "No!" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was still gentle, but there was no room for turning. Star Xu has been staying with Shi Shaoqin. The little guy still knows his temper very well. He angrily tooted his tender little mouth and threw himself on Shi Shaoqin... Rubbing the sand on his body against him. This is not enjoyable. He directly rolled Shi Shaoqin''s face with his little hand with some meat Shi Shaoqin''s clean face has been covered with fine sand under the refraction of the sun. When the people around me saw it, they wanted to laugh one by one, but they didn''t dare. They could only hold it. Their expressions were very strange. At that time, Shi Jue Chi''s mouth corner overflowed with a smile and said to Carney: "there is always a feeling that the Mo palace will be overturned by star in the future..." After all, Shaoqin dotes on star so much. He has been spoiled to the point where he feels angry ¡­¡­ Yangon City, Bailemen. The noisy crowd and the smoky environment render the atmosphere of the whole Bailemen more and more erosive. Even in the daytime, with the mutual support of drugs and gambling, the place with the most arrogant desire for money is full of the darkest and degenerate side of human nature "Open!" "Big, big, big..." "Small, small..." "Ah --" "Damn it, it''s small again!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± All kinds of shouting and swearing became more angry in the shouting. Some even beat the table and put cold weapons because they lost. But in country m, where private troops are rampant, if these people want to make trouble in such a backstage field, it is obvious that they will end badly. Ye Chenyu spit angrily in his eyes, took out the last stack of dollars in his bag and put it on the pressure table. "Fuck..." Ye Chenyu said with a grin. "I still buy a big one, I don''t believe it. You can''t drive a big one for me!" He Guan and the people on the side looked at each other, looked at Ye Chenyu''s gambler''s appearance, and sneered. Because several small ones have been opened in succession, now the people at the table see that ye Chenyu is a weak God. Seeing that he still buys big ones, they press on the small ones one after another "Buy and leave!" "Big, big..." "Small, small, small..." Just when the dice in the dice cup began to rotate, everyone wanted to shout with their lives Especially when the dice are about to stop, the noise is even louder. When ye Chenyu stared at the dice cup and shouted "big", his green veins were exposed and his face had become very ferocious. The official looked at the cash on the table calmly. Although few people bought it, it was won by Ye Chenyu. A stack of dollars was very eye-catching. His hand moved on the button under the table, and a dice in the dice cup moved "Open..." At the right moment, the Dutch official shouted and opened the black cover outside. "Ow, ow..." "Lying trough!" In the cheers of the people who bought the small one, ye Chenyu shouted angrily The more excited everyone was, the more he became ferocious. "Cao your mother..." Ye Chenyu patted the table angrily. "You must be a ghost?" "What are you talking about?" The official immediately stared, "if you want to make trouble in Bailemen, you have to see if you have this ability." As soon as his words fell, he saw several big men gathered together. Ye Chenyu looked around. The original image was a little sloppy. Now, because of fear, he was immediately like a clown. At the right time, Maggie came in wearing fiery red wipe * tights, a pair of cowboy hot pants and Martin boots Chapter 1072 Many people are watching Ye Chenyu''s jokes. One by one, they seem to be waiting for the person who has lost money but is unwilling to be abused by Bailemen. Ye Chenyu greedily looked at the cash on the table and said, "bet again!" "Do you still have money?" The Dutch official sneered coldly. Ye Chenyu''s face was blue and white. He looked like a gambler who had lost money and wanted to make a profit. "I have no money," Ye Chenyu stared, "but I have a life!" With a bang, ye Chenyu suddenly took out a gun from behind and photographed it on the gambling table. "Ow --" As soon as the people around them saw that the black one was a gun, they retreated and dispersed one after another. If you want to see a joke, you don''t want to see it with your own life. He Guan looked at the gun on the table and at Ye Chenyu, "but we don''t accept life here." Cold words have no meaning to fear. Who here is not an outlaw? Bailemen can operate in Yangon City, and it is impossible to be frightened by a gambler. The big men looked at Ye Chenyu one by one with contempt in their eyes. Ye Chenyu''s hand pressed on the gun gradually worked hard, and finally trembled slightly. I don''t know whether it''s because of fear or because of the excitement under too much anger. "If you want to continue, go and find the money..." the charge official said coldly, "or get out by yourself!" The threat did not hide at all. If ye Chenyu still dares to make trouble, the next moment, a big man can throw him out directly "Brother Yu!" Suddenly, a cry came from the door. Maggie put her hands in her hot pants pocket, and her flirtatious and deep eyes looked at the voice He saw a figure stride to Ye Chenyu. Qiao Rui first pulled Ye Chenyu, then saw the gun he was holding, and immediately looked shocked, "you''re crazy!" Gritting his teeth, he squeezed out the gap between his teeth word by word, showing his anger under forbearance. He pulled Ye Chenyu''s hand, took the gun on the table and pinned it behind him. Then he nodded apologetically and hurriedly took Ye Chenyu out. "Let go!" Ye Chenyu is obviously manic. Qiao Rui''s face was dark. He didn''t care about ye Chenyu''s struggle. With great strength, he dragged him out. Maggie looked at the play from beginning to end with a smile in her eyes. Obviously, she is a gambler who is addicted to gambling, but she is interested in it. "What''s wrong, miss?" Asked Miao angdeng, Maggie''s bodyguard. Maggie looked at the last shadow of Ye Chenyu forced by Qiao Rui to leave and slowly said, "that gun... Is a police gun!" The faint words were awe inspiring. Although her position can''t be seen clearly, she is naturally sensitive. Coupled with the model of the gun, it should be the most common police gun in Z country. "Miss, would you like to follow me?" Asked Danto, who was also the bodyguard of Maggie. Maggie thought and nodded. ¡­¡­ "I don''t need you to take care of my business..." Ye Chenyu leaned against the wall with his hands in his pockets and looked at the ground. Because it is noon, the sun is burning on the ground, and the heat wave that can''t be ignored evaporates from the ground "Why do you abandon yourself?" Qiao Rui clenched his teeth and growled, then lowered his voice, "Emma, brother Yu, I''m a little nervous." Ye Chenyu gave him a funny look and continued: "you haven''t enjoyed the desire brought by money. Of course you say it''s easy..." "What was your dream? What was your ambition?" "Don''t give me shit!" Ye Chenyu''s voice was restless under mania. "How much can we earn? Do you know that the money I just lost is my lifelong salary." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Two people are facing each other one by one. Gradually, Qiao Rui''s voice was mixed with disappointment at Ye Chenyu. And ye Chenyu seems to be more and more unrepentant, and even feels that he is right to do so "Coming..." Ye Chenyu''s ears suddenly moved and whispered. "I don''t care what you do, you have to go back with me today..." Qiao Rui said gnashing his teeth. "Go back with me, at least you can turn yourself in... Huh!" Suddenly, there was a dull sound of pain. Qiao Rui grinned secretly and seized the momentum Ye Chenyu wanted to run However, in an instant, the two fought as soon as they disagreed. The sound of "bang bang" kept coming out. Every time, it fell on the other party with great strength. "You let me go..." Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth and gasped. "If you still call me brother, you''ll let me go!" "I won''t let you go on like this!" Qiao Rui roared. Ye Chenyu screamed wildly, "ah Rui, I must go back to prison... My life will be over." "You can do meritorious service. You''re not desperate." "Useless, useless..." Ye Chenyu''s voice was desperate. "If I go back, the Bureau will not let me go, and the people on the road will not let me go." "No!" Qiao Rui went back, "you have become our captain..." "Ah Rui, do you know how much money I left?" Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth, "five million dollars... This money, I''ll be shot when I go back!" "You hand over the money to the Bureau. The money you just lost, brothers, find a way..." "Five million dollars. What I just lost is the last one. How can I find a way?" A roaring voice made Qiao Rui completely confused. "You, what did you say?" "It''s impossible to pay back the money..." Ye Chenyu said coldly, "either you let me go, or... You''ll shoot me right now!" Ye Chenyu took a hard look at Qiao Rui, rubbed the blood on the corner of his mouth and turned around Every step he took was a little heavy and even uneasy. "You, you stop!" Qiao Rui looked at Ye Chenyu''s back and shouted. Ye Chenyu was not obedient. Qiao Rui suddenly pulled out his gun, which was just pressed on the gambling table by Ye Chenyu. "Ye Chenyu, stop... Don''t think I won''t shoot!" The roar was trembling under despair. He kept lighting with a gun. Ye Chenyu stopped, just one step away from the alley. Looking back slightly, ye Chenyu''s eyes showed complex emotions. "Ah Rui, what have I got after so many years of undercover?" Ye Chenyu sneered, "promotion still needs to do meritorious work again. In the end, don''t you keep working and get a poor salary of thousands of yuan a month?" "I chose the road myself..." Ye Chenyu took back his sight. "I have fled to m country. How can I go back with you?" A rhetorical question fell, and ye Chenyu raised his feet again. Qiao Rui didn''t know whether it was because he was thinking about ye Chenyu''s words or something, and forgot his reaction. Just as ye Chenyu stepped out of the alley, he suddenly woke up. Instinct controls reason. ''Bang'' across, the gunshot echoed in the ai Chapter 1073 At the critical moment, ye Chenyu flashed to one side reflexively Then he ran without any pause. Qiao Rui was startled by himself, but he quickly reacted. He took the gun and chased out. He saw Ye Chenyu running to a busy city not far away from him. With horror in his eyes, he hurried after him Fortunately, m country is turbulent, and people don''t seem to have much reaction to the sound of gunfire. Ye Chenyu is running, Qiao Rui is chasing The two men spared no effort at all. "Miss?" Danto looked puzzled at Maggie. Danto and Miao angdeng don''t understand the language of country Z, but Maggie can not only understand it, but also speak very smoothly because she often has contacts with country Z. Maggie stared at Ye Chenyu all the time. There was a certain light in her deep eye socket. "Tell the servants to follow and don''t lose it..." said Maggie. "Yes!" Danto responded and took out his cell phone to make a call. Soon, someone sent the locomotive. While listening to the report from the people below, Maggie put on her headphones and rode a motorcycle to catch up. Downtown is very prosperous, and such prosperity is full of erosion in the dark. As ye Chenyu ran, he pulled the vendor''s stall to stop Qiao Rui, causing discontent and scolding in the downtown area. Soon, ye Chenyu got rid of Qiao Rui. He looked at the people in the distance and hurried into a residential area. Qiao Rui quickly chased after him, but he didn''t know where ye Chenyu was hiding in the intricate alleys "Brother Yu, brother Yu..." Qiao Rui shouted reluctantly, "you can''t escape like this... Do you know?" No one answered him. Even, it was quiet and a little scary. "Now I just come to you. If the above gives orders, you should know what the consequences are..." Still no one answered. Qiao Rui shouted cautiously as he slowed down and moved slowly. His eyes were as bright as a falcon. Suddenly "Oh!" Qiao Rui was suddenly strangled from behind with great strength. Qiao Rui struggled several times and failed He broke the man''s arm around his neck, but after several attempts, he didn''t respond. Qiao Rui''s eyes sank and his feet kicked back Just as the man dodged, he had pulled out his gun from behind and pulled the trigger towards the rear. At the right time, in order to avoid it, the man had strangled Qiao Rui''s arm and lost his strength. Qiao Rui didn''t miss this opportunity. While turning and breaking free, he threw the man out with an over shoulder fall Ye Chenyu didn''t fall down. With the help of the wall, he made an effort under his feet, and the man had fallen steadily to the ground. "Ah Rui, don''t follow me anymore..." Ye Chenyu''s face is full of murderous spirit, "if you force me again, I can only..." "Are you going to kill me?" Qiao Rui''s voice was filled with disappointment. Ye Chenyu''s strength just now was completely cruel. "You want me to die, don''t you?" Ye Chenyu sneered, "people are selfish..." "Ye Chenyu, you''re crazy, you''re really crazy..." Qiao Rui roared, "you''ve forgotten everything you used to be, and you''re willing to fall..." He had already raised his gun to Ye Chenyu, and looked as if he had lost his cool because of disappointment. "I won''t let you continue to make mistakes, I..." "Bang!" "Poof..." "Oh!" A series of voices suddenly burst into silence, which was overwhelmed. Gunfire, the sound of bullets falling into the body Also, the pain is muffled! Everything was so fast that ye Chenyu and Qiao Rui forgot their reaction. Ye Chenyu watched Qiao Rui''s shoulder blades begin to bleed. Instinctively, he looked left and right "What trouble!" Maggie had a gun in her hand. "If you can''t solve something with one shot, then shoot again... Simple!" With that, she completely ignored Ye Chenyu and raised her gun again. The corners of her mouth looked at Qiao Rui with a bloodthirsty smile. Qiao Rui didn''t care about the gunshot wound on his body. He raised his gun to Maggie and asked, "who are you?" "I don''t like people who have to change other people''s lives..." Maggie smiled provocatively at the corners of her mouth. Ye Chenyu frowned and grabbed Mai Qier''s gun, his fingers blocking the gap between the falling of the trigger. "I don''t know you, and I don''t need you to take care of my business." "He''s going to kill you..." Maggie sneered. "I''m helping you." "I don''t need a woman to help..." Ye Chenyu obviously disdained women on his face. Maggie''s face suddenly sank, "Hey, don''t be ignorant..." "Hum!" Ye Chenyu looked like he didn''t want to be grateful at all. Suddenly, his wrist sank, and then a backhand. The gun in Maggie''s hand had fallen on him "You!" Maggie didn''t expect Ye Chenyu''s action to be so sharp. Ye Chenyu ignored her, just looked at Qiao Rui and said, "go... Otherwise, don''t blame me!" "I must take you with me today!" Qiao Rui gritted his teeth. Ye Chenyu raised his hand and pointed the gun at Qiao Rui. "A Rui, brother, it''s the end today..." he paused. "See you next time. You''re a policeman and I''m a thief. Each depends on his ability!" "Bang!" One shot, accurately shot into Qiao Rui''s injured shoulder blade Because the impact was too strong, Qiao Rui stepped back two steps uncontrollably. He didn''t seem to think that ye Chenyu would really shoot, look at the blood gushing from his shoulder blades, and then look at Ye Chenyu... The disappointment at the bottom of his eyes was beyond measure. Maggie smiled, "I''m you. Just shoot him in the heart... It''s all done." "Then you just helped me. Why didn''t you shoot him directly in the heart?" Ye Chenyu sneered. Maggie shrugged, but smiled silently. "Brother Yu..." Qiao Rui''s eyes were red, "why did you... Become like this?!" The roaring voice was filled with despair and sadness to the surrounding air. When ye Chenyu was indifferent and right, suddenly... A figure flashed out of the alley behind Qiao Rui. Almost instinctively, ye Chenyu and Mai Qier were on alert. When he saw that the visitor was Chen Yu, ye Chenyu frowned slightly "A Rui?!" Chen Yu stepped forward to hold Qiao Rui, looked at Ye Chenyu, looked at the gun in his hand, and asked with a stunned look: "why?" Maggie looked at the beautiful Chen Yu and felt jealous of her natural dissatisfaction as a woman. "Why --" Chen Chen shouted. Ye Chenyu felt a strange emotion at the bottom of his eyes, and secretly said in his heart: lying in the groove, is this a plus play?! "Why not..." Ye Chenyu said coldly. Chen Yu''s eyes turned red in an instant. Tears almost choked and asked, "Chen Yu, have you ever thought about me?" Her lips trembled and she shouted, "what shall I do?" Chapter 1074 Qiao Rui was a little weak because he was shot twice. With the blood still flowing, his face looked pale. However, the appearance of Chen Yu and her questioning If it wasn''t for the environment and atmosphere, he really wanted to give a thumbs up. Shit, this acting Sister Yu didn''t study in a foreign field training camp before, but went to an Oscar performance class?! Ye Chenyu didn''t speak, but his eyes were a little complicated. He looked at Chen Yu as if he wanted to explain, but he didn''t think it was necessary "What? Why?" "Some people are born to be free from the exciting world," said Maggie at the right time Chen Yu seemed to see the existence of Maggie just now. His eyes full of tears looked at Maggie vaguely. "What''s more..." Maggie suddenly took Ye Chenyu''s arm and looked at Chen Chen provocatively, "... Being with me is more exciting and interesting than being with you." Chen Chen''s face changed in an instant. She seemed to seek an explanation, and her eyes'' Shua ''looked at Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu was indifferent from beginning to end. He looked decadent. At the moment, he showed a charm under the vicissitudes of maturity. He didn''t speak and didn''t even want to explain "Who is she?" "Who is she, ye Chenyu?" Chen asked, holding back his sadness "Does it have anything to do with you?" Ye Chenyu asked the devil, and the corners of his mouth were full of ridicule. When Chen Yu was asked by him, he forgot to think, and his eyelashes kept shaking, as if he couldn''t believe Ye Chenyu would say so. "Doesn''t it have anything to do with me?" Chen Chen''s voice choked more and more, "it has nothing to do with me. What am I?" Ye Chenyu still looked indifferent, and even the disgust under his eyes gradually overflowed. Mai Qi''er just circled Ye Chenyu''s arm. His enchanting figure rubbed against him consciously or unconsciously, and looked at Chen Chen''s eyes more and more provocative. Chen Yu''s lips kept trembling, and his eyes were hoping for something. "Brother Yu doesn''t know him..." Qiao Rui said weakly at the right time. "Money has already made him lose himself. He has forgotten his original ambition!" Because of too much force, Qiao Rui touched the wound and frowned painfully. "I''ll ask you," Chen''s tears spilled out of his eyes uncontrollably. "Do you want to go with me?" "Let me go back and die, is the way you love me?" Ye Chenyu asked coldly. "Have you ever loved me?" Chen Chen collapsed and roared, "I''ve done so much for you, but what about you? What have you done for me?" The voice of the accusation lost its calmness again, "I''ll ask you this, don''t you want to do it for me?" "Hello..." said Maggie with a laugh. "He will be shot when he goes back with you. What love do you still love?" She sneered, "besides, with me by his side, do you think he will go back with you?" "Shut up!" Chen Chen shouted at Maggie. "Shut up!" Ye Chenyu said coldly almost as Chen Yu''s words fell. Chen Yu looked at him with unbelievable eyes, which was so complex that it was distressing. "Take him away, since then we have nothing to do with each other..." Ye Chenyu said, holding Maggie''s waist with his long arm and taking it to his arms, "from beginning to end, I don''t like you. What I like... Is her." Maggie felt Ye Chenyu''s strong chest. At that moment, it was clear that she was a theater goer, but she had an unspeakable palpitation. Especially when ye Chenyu''s evil eyes crossed her full gully, she was even more elated "You, what you said is true?!" Chen Yu asked with trembling lips and hope in his eyes. "I..." Ye Chenyu just wanted to answer, suddenly... The next words were blocked by Mai Qier. Maggie put her arms around Ye Chenyu''s neck directly, and the red lips pressed on his lips. The atmosphere at this moment suddenly became strange. There was a touch of complex emotion at the bottom of Ye Chenyu''s eyes, which was fleeting. Chen Yu slightly frowned and looked at it. For a moment, he forgot his reaction because of surprise. Qiao Rui''s eyes widened. If it hadn''t been for the injury, his face was pale. Now he could forget that he was still acting because of surprise and exaggeration. I''ll go. The play is a little Out of control?! Qiao Rui endured the stabbing pain on his shoulder blade, pressed the blood hole in his palm, and the blood in his fingers kept overflowing. In fact, he was thinking When the children''s play is over, will he be honored for losing too much blood?! Four people, two people "kiss" enthusiasm, two people have a face of despair "Ye Chenyu, you will lose me completely!" Chen Yu screamed with a crash, gritted his teeth and pulled back his sight on Ye Chenyu. He cried while holding Qiao Rui and left with heavy steps. There was no way to be sad. Even Qiao Rui, who knew the truth, felt Chen Yu''s collapse and discomfort at this moment. For a moment, he even felt that there were really some things he had to say between Chen Yu and ye Chenyu Ye Chenyu pulled away Mai Qier and looked at her coldly. His eyes fell on Chen Chen''s back. "Why, reluctant?" Maggie looked at Ye Chenyu with her lipstick on her lips, and felt a kind of unspeakable excitement. Ye Chenyu coldly takes back his sight, simply pulls away Mai Qier, turns around and wants to leave. "Hello..." When Maggie walked up, she saw Ye Chenyu wiping his mouth. She raised her eyebrows and smiled, "Hey, your name is Ye Chenyu?" "What''s the problem?" Ye Chenyu said coldly. Maggie stopped. "Are you a policeman?" Ye Chenyu also stopped, turned around and looked at Maggie fiercely, "what''s the problem?" "No..." Maggie put his gun away. "It''s just that the injured policeman, and the other... Probably too?" Ye Chenyu''s eyes became heavy. "From a previous department?" Ye Qier guessed that he had changed his face. "You won''t feel better if they go back..." said Maggie. Ye Chenyu''s eyes sank slightly. "Say what you want to say!" "Why don''t I take care of you forever?" As Maggie said, there was a smell of killing from the bottom of her eyes, "as long as they don''t go back, you at least have a chance... If you go back..." Next, Maggie didn''t go on. But what does it mean? Ye Chenyu knows it very well. "Who are you?" Ye Chenyu asked coldly, and his eyes burst out a startled light, "what does my business have to do with you?" At the same time, he approached step by step Maggie was startled by his momentum. When he stepped back, he asked coldly, "why, aren''t you willing?" Chapter 1075 Ye Chenyu didn''t answer, but approached Maggie step by step Maggie was a little uneasy, but it was someone who had seen the world, and there was no fear on her face. The body leaned back against the wall. Maggie simply stopped moving and looked at Ye Chenyu with seductive eyes. "I don''t care who you are..." Ye Chenyu propped one hand on the wall outside the palm of Maggie''s face, and his voice was low and full of warning. "Today''s thing should be regarded as having never happened." "What if I think it happened?" Asked Maggie provocatively. Ye Chenyu sneered and saw his palm. Maggie hasn''t responded yet. The gun on her body has reached him "What are you doing?" Maggie''s face changed slightly. Ye Chenyu looked down at the gun, sneered coldly, and then looked coldly at Maggie, "I don''t want to make trouble, you... You''d better not make trouble with me." As he spoke, his face gradually approached Maggie When the last words fell, as long as the nose moved forward, it would be right for Maggie. Maggie''s heart beat because ye Chenyu''s evil spirit was cold and fierce, making it ''pop pop pop'' jump Because they were too close, each other''s breathing was clear and audible, which made her have unprecedented palpitations. Why is there an irresistible evil in this man?! "You''re desperate..." said Maggie. "Why don''t you come with me?" "Oh!" Ye Chenyu sneered. When he got up, he threw the gun in his hand to Mai Qi''er and disdained it. He coldly took back his sight and turned to leave "Don''t touch them!" Ye Chenyu''s voice came in a deep voice with complex emotions. "Don''t worry about my business..." he said coldly, "we are not familiar!" "Do you like that woman?" Asked Maggie. Ye Chenyu stopped at his feet, "then I don''t like you. Do I want to kill you?" At the same time, he turned back and took back a pair of sharp eyes after coldly sweeping Maggie This time, he didn''t stop. "Hey, you like gambling. I have money here..." Maggie followed Ye Chenyu. "Baile gate, you can play at will." Ye Chenyu ignored her. Maggie didn''t mind, "even the kind of enjoyment you want, I can give you I..." Ye Chenyu still ignored her. "Money, excitement, madness..." Maggie stopped, "Ye Chenyu, I can meet you here." Ye Chenyu still didn''t stop Maggie was a little annoyed, but she, who had always been used to being praised, didn''t chase after her again. "If you think it through, go to Bailemen to find me..." Mai Qi''er shouted at Ye Chenyu''s voice, which was about to disappear in the bottom of his eyes. But ye Chenyu didn''t give her any feedback. Maggie scolded angrily and said coldly, "I don''t believe it. In Yangon City, you have no money and can''t return home... Don''t come to me at last!" As soon as she changed her charming appearance, Maggie became indifferent. She took the gun, took out her cell phone and dialed the number "Miss?" Miao angdeng''s respectful voice came. Maggie walked back and asked in a cold voice, "did those two people stop?" "The police are patrolling nearby..." Miao angdeng said. "When he saw the man injured, he thought something had happened and took both of them away." "Find a way," said Maggie with a heavy look, "so that they can stay in Yangon forever!" "Yes!" Miao angdeng answered. Let a person stay in any place forever, that is only death! ¡­¡­ Yangon public hospital. The police guard the outside with guns, elevators, stairways and operating rooms. People who don''t know think it''s a major figure in country m who is undergoing surgery. "Officer Chen," the head of Yangon police said in broken English, "when the bullet is taken out, you should leave as soon as possible." "I know." Chen Yu answered calmly. If it weren''t for the red eyes, I couldn''t see that she had just played a bitter drama. Looking at the time, Chen took his mobile phone and dialed Xie Qifeng "Is there anything wrong with Chenyu because you suddenly appear?" Xie Qifeng''s obvious voice was tense. "No." Chen Yu turned around and walked to the window. He couldn''t tell whether it was a quiet or noisy world outside. "He reacted quickly..." "That''s good." Xie Qifeng finally put his heart down. "How''s Qiao Rui?" "Basically walking according to the plan..." Chen''s vision gradually became familiar. "After he takes out the bullet, we will leave." "I''ll send someone to pick you up." "Yes." Chen Ying answered and hung up. The bullet was quickly removed. Qiao Rui is injured, but he and Chen Yu must leave Maggie is not as woman as she looks. Her mind is vicious and she will never lose to any man. All the time was racing against the clock. Just as Qiao Rui and Chen Yu got on the van and left, Maggie''s people arrived in the hospital Later, Chen Yu heard that several medical staff were involved in a fierce battle in the hospital. He returned to the temporary headquarters without danger. Xie Qifeng looked at Qiao Rui and Chen Yu and nodded. "Next, wait for the news from Chenyu..." Xie Qifeng said. "During this period, Qiao Rui just recovered." There was no objection. "I''ll connect the satellite signal..." Lu Xiaowei said with glasses. Yang Jinyu looked at Chen Yu''s red and swollen glasses, didn''t speak, and turned out of the temporary medical center with Lu Xiaowei. Chen Yu poured water for Qiao Rui, "you rest." "Sister Chen......" Qiao Rui shouted to Chen. "Huh?" Qiao Rui bared his teeth and propped up his body slightly. Because he touched the wound, his whole face was a little deformed. "I don''t understand," Qiao Rui asked. "When brother Yu left for Yangon, there was no plan for you to participate in. Why?" Chen Yu obviously saw the dissatisfaction of Qiao Rui''s eyes. "If brother Yu is not experienced," Qiao Rui asked, "your presence will certainly make Maggie aware." "I studied Maggie last night..." Chen Zhen thought about it and explained, "I have research on crime. After reading some things about Maggie, it''s not enough to rely on you alone to make ye Chenyu closer to her." "What do you mean?" "Maggie is not a fool. After all, she will take over the wind puppet group in the future." Chen Yu said calmly, "it''s a counter strategy trick. It''s hard for ye Chenyu to win her trust." Qiao Rui frowned. "However, if you add women''s natural jealousy, it''s different..." Chen Yu sank her eyes. "Besides, Maggie has a very bad problem, but she may not know it herself." Qiao Rui looked puzzled and asked subconsciously, "what?" Chapter 1076 "Grab what others care about..." Chen said slowly, "it will make her inexplicably excited." After a pause, she said with a far-reaching vision: "for example, I care about ye Chenyu, and ye Chenyu has very complex emotions for me..." Chen Yu''s voice was a little secluded, as if he had fallen into some thoughts. Qiao Rui didn''t answer, but waited quietly. After a while, Chen Yu pulled back his thoughts, his voice became calm and said without any emotion: "at this time, ye Chenyu will have a strong attraction to Maggie." Qiao Rui opened his mouth slightly in surprise, as if he didn''t understand women''s thoughts. "What''s more, I believe..." Chen zhe slightly touched the corner of his mouth, with complex emotions in his heart, and said slowly, "I believe Ye Chenyu will understand why I did that." Without saying anything more, Chen Yu glanced at Qiao Rui and turned to leave Leaving Qiao Rui alone, he still can''t understand women''s thoughts. "This woman''s mind is too difficult to understand!" Qiao Rui murmured. His face was still white, but in his eyes, it flickered. Because he couldn''t guess the woman''s mind, he couldn''t understand it more and more. Chen Yu put his hands in his trouser pockets and had a straight waist as a combatant. She walked slowly with some wandering thoughts Finally, he stopped where he was chatting with Ye Chenyu. Frown slightly. Chen Yu looks around. There is no way to understand his direction. Why is he here The most important thing is that she has been thinking about things just now, but now she can''t remember what she was thinking?! He pulled down the corners of his mouth with self mockery. Chen Chen sat on the grass and lay down like Ye Chenyu The sky was so blue that there were almost no clouds. Can be such a pure sky, hiding dirt It has become a paradise for criminals and a source of evil that the world has always been unable to contain. The corners of Chen''s mouth began to crack. In my mind, I unconsciously crossed the alley... The scene of Maggie kissing Ye Chenyu. With a slight frown, Chen Yu tilted his mouth and shook his head. However, when I stopped, I still had that scene in my mind Chen Yu sat up angrily. "He didn''t kiss it on his own initiative. What do you think?!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu grinned and wrinkled his face with tangled drooping eyes. What did she say?! No matter who kisses who, what does it have to do with her? Besides, it''s still a task Chen Yu got up in some annoyance, looked at her lying position and found a reason for herself. It must be because this is where ye Chenyu stayed. She unconsciously brought his evil into it, so she thought like that! Chen Yu tilted his mouth and left with a big stride ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. Zhao Qianyu has been laughing with the newspaper all morning. Even when eating, he is intoxicated with the picture in the newspaper and can''t help himself. I saw in the newspaper that Zhao Qianyu was holding Xiao Jing, a gentleman and a lady It was built that day. It''s really worthy of a face. Ha ha ha! "Dong Dong!" The knock came when Zhao Qianyu covered her mouth and smiled. She was suddenly surprised. Her smile was still stiff on her face and looked at the door Xiao Jing stood at the door with a cold face. He was wearing a suit and shoes with a awe inspiring momentum. Zhao Qianyu doesn''t understand why Xiao Jing is teasing and forcing in front of Gu Beichen and becomes a ruthless and domineering president in front of him? This painting style Although she likes it very much, it''s a little depressed! Eh, isn''t he out? When did she come back... Why didn''t she hear the arrival of the elevator just now?! Zhao Qianyu grinned secretly: she must have been addicted to reporting and isolated the outside world "The Emperor invited you to come, just to make you giggle with the newspaper all day?" If Xiao Jing is cold, there is no temperature. "No..." Zhao Qianyu got up and said in a low voice. "Have you sorted out the information you asked?" Xiao Jing''s voice was slightly heavy. "Tidy up..." Zhao Qianyu hurried to the data cabinet in the back and took out a folder. She first confirmed that the information was correct, then turned and hurried to Xiao Jing Suddenly The sound of "ah" came. Zhao Qianyu lost his balance because he was in a hurry. One of his thin high heels didn''t stabilize and his foot sprained. Xiao Jing frowned in an instant. Before he could react, Zhao Qianyu rushed towards him "Dong!" The heavy voice came, and Zhao Qianyu''s eyes closed more tightly because of fear. Eh?! Why doesn''t it hurt? It''s... Soft?! Zhao Qianyu suddenly opened his eyes and looked at his face close at hand. His pupils widened in an instant Only now did she find that the dog''s blood and Xiao jingzui were talking to each other! Hahaha This dog has good blood. She likes it! The sound of "Ding" came. Just when Zhao Qianyu was lying on Xiao Jing and Xiao Jing was a little confused, the elevator arrived. Gu Beichen took Jian Mo''s hand and came out, followed by Susan who had just gone to other departments to send information back Accompanied by the voice of Jane and Susan chatting. However, when the three people looked at the two people with their upper lips on the ground, they stopped and swallowed what had been in their mouth. "Tut tut..." Jian Mo said with a beautiful eyebrow. "Office romance is the most loving." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, and his eyes were gentle That translates into "my wife is right"! Susan held back her smile, looked at Xiao Jing''s already dark face, and then looked at Zhao Qianyu''s good appearance, which made her smile deeper. "Get up!" Xiao Jing gritted his teeth and said when Zhao Qianyu refused to leave his lips in full view of the public. Zhao Qianyu got up angrily, but because he was wearing a one-step skirt, the whole action was a little funny. Xiao Jing got up angrily, and his face was as black as it should be. He bent down to pick up the folder on the ground, looked at Zhao Qianyu with disgust, turned around, wiped his mouth while he entered the office Directly ignored Gu Beichen! He has only one mood at the moment. What a beeping dog! "Didn''t you kiss me? As for me?!" Zhao Qianyu said, "I''m a girl. I haven''t suffered... Ah!" Zhao Qianyu screamed and stepped back half a step. She looked at Jane Mo who didn''t know when she came to her, and her whole face was a little twitchy. "I also think it''s just a kiss. It''s the same as my little daughter-in-law..." Jane Mo said with a smile. Zhao Qianyu pulled at the corners of his mouth, and then his face collapsed. "Young lady, don''t make fun of me!" Zhao Qianyu''s voice is wilting. "No, no, no, I don''t laugh at you, but I support you very much!" Zhao Qianyu fanned his eyelashes and looked at Jian mo "Let me tell you a secret..." Jian Mo said, and then came to Zhao Qianyu''s ear. There was an uncontrollable smile in her voice. "I''ll tell you, Xiao Jing is still a little virgin..." Chapter 1077 Zhao Qianyu''s face burst in an instant. While his pupils widened, he looked at Jian Mo incredulously. It''s not that she doesn''t believe Xiao Jing is a little virgin, but that Jane Mo just told her, really good?! Jian Mo looked at Zhao Qianyu with a smile, picked his eyebrows, and then looked back at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen came forward, looked at Zhao Qianyu indifferently, and took Jian Mo to the office When passing Xiao Jing''s office, Jane Mo suddenly pulled him. Gu Beichen Mo Tong looked at Jian Mo deeply. How could he not know her mind? But his wife has become addicted to matchmaking recently, and he can only let her be happy She is happy, and the baby in her belly can feel it naturally. Well, he is such an incorruptible and selfish man Anyway, Xiao Jing also said that brothers are used to pit! "Dong Dong!" Jane Mo knocked on the door and raised her eyebrows with Susan. Susan chuckled, "I won''t go in. I''m really angry when I look back. It''s not fun..." Then she nodded with Gu Beichen and Jian Mo and went to her office. Seeing that the people who came in were Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, Xiao Jing immediately said with a gloomy face: "if you came to tease me... The door hasn''t moved, it''s still over there, you can leave!" Gu Beichen had no emotion on his cold face. He sat down on the sofa and said, "why, in the emperor, I have to be driven away?" Xiao Jing collapsed on his face. "I said Chen Shao, can you not magnify my pain for your wife''s happiness?" "Zhao Qianyu''s resignation," Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing with far-reaching eyes and said slowly, "I agree to approve." In a word, Xiao Jing immediately choked. Jane Mo laughed and didn''t show any kindness. "Xiao Jing, what about people..." Jane Mo looked at Xiao Jing''s helplessness with gossip on her face. "You have to pay for your behavior, right?" "OK, you''re the ones who come to see the jokes. Let''s see..." Xiao Jing sat down to one side and said, "enough to see!" Jane Mo also sat down and said with a deep look in her voice, "I said Xiao Jing, you won''t leave her because you like Zhao Qianyu?" She raised her eyebrows, as if I had come here and I understood. "Just, you''re embarrassed to say..." Jane Mo looked seriously. "The devil likes it!" Xiao Jing immediately refuted. "Oh, I don''t like it..." Jane Mo suddenly smiled, "that is, do you like Susan?" "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth. Jane Mo snorted, "I said, just admit it..." "Admit what?!" "Either admit that you like Zhao Qianyu, you didn''t approve of her resignation." Jian Mo''s voice was aggressive, "either admit that you like Susan, but find that her focus is not on you recently, so leave Zhao Qianyu to stimulate her!" "..." Xiao Jing collapsed, "young lady, why don''t you write a novel? There''s no one else in your brain..." Xiao Jing said, "I like Zhao Qianyu? I like Susan? I also like you!" A sharp look of "brush" suddenly fell on Xiao Jing''s face. Xiao Jing''s mouth was quick for a moment. When he reacted, he looked at Gu Beichen and forced him hard Why is he so unlucky? With Gu Beichen, a wife slave! Not only brother Keng, happy for his wife, but also all kinds of immorality The baby''s heart is bitter¡ª¡ª Xiao Jing drooped his shoulders and leaned weakly on the sofa. "I don''t understand. Why do you have to pair me with Susan?" "Familiar!" "Not everyone who is familiar can get together, and if they are not unfamiliar, they won''t become familiar..." Xiao Jing rolled his eyes. "Besides, look at Susan''s reaction to Zhao Qianyu''s pestering me recently?" "How do I know?" Jane Mo glanced, "I don''t stare at you every day..." After a pause, Jane Mo was suddenly stunned. "No, Susan''s reaction just now was to watch the play..." "That''s it." Xiao Jing explored her hand. "She told me that it''s the right thing to be familiar with. When the right person appears, I''ll naturally become indifferent." "It''s like you''re a lover..." Jane Mo wrinkled her nose. "It''s just a little virgin. She doesn''t have any experience!" "Teng" for a moment, Xiao Jing stood up. He stared at Jian Mo with wide eyes and looked like he was about to jump. "Jian Mo, I''ll tell you..." Xiao Jing gnashed his teeth. "Don''t think you have Chen less support, you just, you just..." "I am unscrupulous?" Jane Mo blinked and looked innocent, "but this is what your family Chen told me!" "..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, with a headache. I don''t know whether Mo''er is a boy or a girl this time. He found that Mo''er is particularly noisy these days Well, I''m a little afraid of chaos. Xiao Jing looks at Gu Beichen. What else can he say?! Gu Beichen didn''t even look at Xiao Jing. He just looked at the time and said, "I''m going to have a video conference. You go to the lounge to have a rest?" "I was a little tired and wanted to sleep, but I''m too excited now..." As if nothing had happened, Jian Mo completely ignored Xiao Jing''s anger and got up. "I went to find Shen Chu and just waited for them to come to talk about the design of the new building of the district government in the evening." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and got up as if nothing had happened. "When you''re tired, come up and have a rest, you know?" "OK..." Jane Mo took Gu Beichen''s arm and left Xiao Jing''s office together. Xiao Jing looked at the back of the two people, crying and laughing, "you... Who are you?!" Listening to the sound of "wailing", Jane Mo and Gu Beichen looked at each other and smiled. Xiao Jing was in good time, and a relaxed smile appeared on his face "It''s not easy for you to help me sort out my feelings." Xiao Jing lowered his eyes and smiled again. He turned and began to deal with the work. ¡­¡­ Time passes day by day. Los Angeles seems to have become calm, but under this calm, sensitive people feel the surging undercurrent. Unlike the quiet of Los Angeles, the atmosphere of the temporary border command has become more and more dignified over time. Yang Jinyu kept dismantling and installing guns. He became more silent. Qiao Rui''s injury has been much better. For a few quiet days, he is rarely quiet thinking about something "Sister Chen, have you heard from officer Xie?" Qiao Rui asked hurriedly when he saw Chen Yu coming. Yang Jinyu also stopped his action and looked at Chen Yu. Chen Yu looked dignified and said, "Ye Chenyu hasn''t returned with feedback..." As soon as they heard this, they were a little discouraged. At the right time, Lu Xiaowei rushed over with his detector "I tracked the tracker I put on brother Yu!" "Where is he?" Chen asked eagerly. Chapter 1078 Lu Xiaowei looked dignified and pointed to the position on the detector. "I just checked. This place is a waste area..." "Scrap area?" Qiao Rui stepped forward and looked at the place pointed by Lu Xiaowei with his eyebrows. It''s just a map. I can''t see what this position represents "What does the scrap area mean?" Qiao Rui asked hurriedly. Yang Jinyu also came over at the right time. Several people looked at Lu Xiaowei... They felt uneasy under the sense of crisis. "Just..." Lu Xiaowei''s voice became more and more dignified, "... Garbage dump!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Qiao Rui and others couldn''t react for a while. Chen Yu''s face changed slightly, turned and walked to the temporary headquarters At first, I still walked, but without walking twice, it became running. No Ye Chenyu will not have an accident! How is that possible? He is so cheap Didn''t you say that bitches will live a long time?! Chen zhe tightly clenched his lips, and his nose was a little sour. He even lost his calmness. By now, her mind was in a mess. There is only one concept, that is Ye Chenyu had an accident and was thrown into the dump, so he didn''t contact here. Even when the tracker was eroded by garbage, Lu Xiaowei didn''t find it for a while. This idea, with each step of running, was magnified a lot by Chen. Even, she began to regret the extra play that day Is it because ye Chenyu didn''t understand what she meant, so what did Maggie find out?! Chen Yi pushed open the door of the command room and looked at her with a slight gasp. Because she suddenly came in, she looked at her Xie Qifeng and others "Report," Chen Yu stood up straight, "I apply to go to Yangon city." ¡­¡­ "Chase..." There was a loud cry across, accompanied by the rapid and disorderly footsteps. "Don''t let him run away!" "Shit, our land also dares to cheat. I''ll fucking kill you..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± One voice after another came, including Chinese, the language of country m and English But no matter what kind of voice, it is full of anger. Ye Chenyu ran with all his strength. Even if he didn''t take a bath for a few days, he was sloppy to a certain extent, but he still didn''t reduce his evil spirit. "Stop for me..." "Shit, fools stop!" Ye Chenyu spit and ran with milk. However, he hasn''t eaten enough for several days, and he hasn''t even slept well. It''s OK to play catch-up games with a few addicts, but behind them are the thugs raised in the casino Obviously, ye Chenyu had a little trouble running away at the moment. You can''t run without it. Before the back play is finished, he''s full of color, but it''s not fun at all Ye Chenyu looked at the fork of the alley in front of him, clenched his teeth and ran wildly. "Don''t let him run away. Several exits are blocked by me..." A voice came from behind, but it was the words of country M. Ye Chenyu understood except for "don''t let him run away", and the latter half of the sentence was not what they said at all. The reason why I can understand the first half of the sentence is that I have been chased and groped out every day these days. There are all kinds of chasing and hiding in the alley here. In a restaurant not far away, Maggie leisurely sits by the window on the second floor and eats. "Miss, I''m afraid I can''t escape this time..." Miao angdeng said after answering the phone. Maggie picked up the seductive eyes, "this man is very backbone, but he doesn''t come to me." "That''s because he doesn''t know the identity of the young lady, otherwise..." Danto snorted coldly and mocked, "... It''s already stuck." Maggie glanced at Danto and said coldly, "if so, what''s the difference with other smelly men? I''m not interested in my identity?" Danto didn''t speak, but just lowered his eyes. "I just like such a stubborn and arrogant man..." Maggie''s eyebrows moved gently. "I have pride in my bones, but I was infected with gambling." Pornography, gambling and drugs have always been the root causes of human sin. No, most people think they have strong willpower. But once infected, it''s a bottomless abyss... You can''t jump out at all. Maggie looked back, her white fingers picked up the fork and turned it in front of her eyes. "I don''t like the food flying into my mouth... He''s arrogant, so I''ll give it to him." She smiled from the corners of her mouth, but her eyes were cold. "It''s just..." Maggie''s voice lengthened and paused before continuing. "I can only give him his pride." While Maggie''s gloomy words fell, ye Chenyu was surrounded by several people. Ye Chenyu secretly spits and vows that when he returns to "stability", he must learn the language of country m Or you''ll suffer too much! Ye Chenyu wanted to go home. He was afraid that he should be disguised. He didn''t look down at all. Thanks to so many years of undercover experience, these are naturally handy for ye Chenyu. "You provoked those cops?" One of the Chinese speakers asked fiercely, "shit, I don''t see where this is. I dare to go undercover to provoke the cops..." "What undercover?" Ye Chenyu stepped back, "they''re here to catch me!" "Catch you?" The man sneered and vomited, "whether you''re an undercover or a cop, if you dare to make trouble in our field, I''ll chop you today..." Ye Chenyu immediately looked alert. "Go!" The man gnashed his teeth and said a word. Suddenly, people from all directions rushed towards Ye Chenyu The sound of "bangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbangbang. Ye Chenyu can fight very well, at least under the desperado, he can''t fight or not! But he is alone and in poor health No matter how hard you can fight, you can''t resist the siege of seven or eight people. From the beginning, ye Chenyu could resist. In the end, ye Chenyu curled up on the ground, holding his head while protecting his face with his arms The sound of "bang bang" fell on Ye Chenyu irregularly. After a while, his sloppy image became even worse because of the blood. "Don''t kill him," someone said. "You have to take him back to the boss!" The people who punched and kicked Ye Chenyu began to stop one after another However, I think I''ve chased a few blocks, but I''m not reconciled When you close your feet, don''t forget to mend one more foot. "Well" came A man in boots went down and kicked Ye Chenyu''s head Ye Chenyu only felt that the "buzz" in his head suddenly became blank. At the right time, there was some liquid left on his head, but in a moment, he crossed his temples with a sticky touch, spread out on one side of his eyes, and slowly slipped down his cheeks Chapter 1079 Ye Chenyu''s consciousness is becoming more and more blurred. The line of sight began to lose focus His ears were also buzzing. He couldn''t hear what they said. Consciousness became more blurred. Ye Chenyu''s eyelids flapped weakly. He just felt that the blood had soaked his whole face. He was dragged up and his whole body was soft without any support. Ye Chenyu felt with the last remaining consciousness If he guessed right, Maggie must be watching him every day. He gambled and stole money to gamble When she was chased, even this time, she should know. If Chen Chen''s idea is right, then this time, Maggie will appear But if Chen Yu''s criminal psychology is not in place, it seems... He can only accept his fate. Ye Chenyu''s last thought stayed on a bitter smile, and then fell into boundless darkness "Put him down!" Suddenly, a lazy voice came. When the crowd looked, they saw that Maggie''s hands were falsely inserted in the trouser pockets of tight jeans, and her eyelids looked up "Why?" Someone sneered here. One side of the corner of Maggie''s mouth rose and sneered, "just... I want him!" "If you want it, it depends on whether we give it or not!" As the man''s voice fell, he motioned slightly. The two men holding Ye Chenyu stepped back, and the rest of them had pulled away Maggie took a cold step back and saw Miao angdeng and Danto take a step forward. Both of them also opened their posture Compared with the two of them, the people who caught Ye Chenyu were obviously not strong enough. Without ten minutes, they were beaten down. Miao angdeng and Danto looked coldly at the people curled up and wailing on the ground, and withdrew their eyes one after another coldly. Take a few steps forward, set up Ye Chenyu, who was unconscious on the ground, and walked to Maggie "Go back and tell your boss," said Maggie in a cold voice. "This man, I''ve taken Maggie away... If he wants, come to the group to find me." The wailing people listened to Maggie''s words and changed their faces one after another. Maggie looked back coldly and turned around In due time, a business car stopped at the entrance of the alley. Miao angdeng and Danto threw Ye Chenyu directly into the car and stood by the door, waiting for Maggie to get on the bus. Car, all the way to a villa at the junction of Yangon city and Irrawaddy. "Go and call Ge Danmin over..." Maggie got out of the car and ordered. The servant lowered his eyes and hurried to other places to call Ge Danmin. After watching Danto and Miao angdeng put Ye Chenyu on the bed, Maggie said with awe inspiring eyes, "take the equipment and scan him for a tracker." "Yes!" Miao angdeng answered and turned away. Danto looked at Ye Chenyu and asked, "Miss thinks he''s undercover?" "Who knows?" Maggie sneered, "for so many years, it''s not that someone hasn''t tried his best to know the specific location of the wind puppet group." "Since there is such a worry, why didn''t miss just do him?" Maggie smiled coquettishly and looked at Danto. His fingers gently crossed his chest, just wearing a tight T. "of course, because... He has an appetite for me." Danto was a little short of breath because of Maggie''s movements. Maggie took back her finger coldly at the right time, "but for my appetite, I can''t let him take advantage of it." Danto looked at Ye Chenyu with blood on his face, and his eyes flashed cold and fierce. In due time, Miao angdeng brought the equipment Maggie drank the coffee brought by the servant and sat there with her legs cocked, waiting for the result leisurely. Ten minutes later "No, miss!" Miao angdeng took the equipment and said. "OK?" Maggie raised her eyebrows and her eyes fell on the unconscious Ye Chenyu. Miao angdeng nodded, "OK." After the last heavy blow, the wind puppet group has always been careful to avoid police undercover and tracking. The instrument is also updated according to the tracker. It is absolutely impossible to have it on him and can''t be found. Maggie''s mouth was hooked with a strange and complex smile, and her deep eye socket became bewitching because of her deepening vision. Timely, Danto answered the phone and came in. "Yes, Miss Z..." Maggie was not surprised. "Haven''t you been looking for it these days?" "Need to put a message?" Danto asked. Maggie shook her head and gently brushed her fingers across Ye Chenyu''s cheek. The blood on it has dried up, but it feels a little wet. "Whether those people are acting or real..." Maggie''s eyes became familiar. "This man, I''m going to decide." As for whether she can catch him, that''s her ability. "Miss, Gotham min is here." "Let him in..." "Yes!" The servant answered and called godemin. Ge Danmin is a doctor in the mansion. His medical skills are very high What can keep pace with his medical skills is the degree of cruelty in his mind. "Since miss is suspicious, it''s better to..." Ge Danmin looked at Ye Chenyu, and a cruel smile spilled from the corner of his mouth. "I''ll give him an injection." "No..." Maggie lifted her eyes enchanting. "How boring is it?" Ge Danmin looked at Maggie suspiciously, and saw her smiling, but did not explain. "Treat him first..." Maggie turned. "I don''t want a wasted man." "Yes!" Ge Danmin answered and looked at the sight of Ye Chenyu after Maggie left. "I really want to try my new achievements on you, but it''s a pity..." ¡­¡­ Mo palace. With his tender mouth and spoon in his small hand, star pulled the rice on the plate in front of him everywhere, but none of it was stuffed into his mouth. The spoon collided with the plate and made a crisp sound "Jingling" is depressing in some dignified restaurants. Shi Shaoqin sat quietly and watched. The little guy didn''t say his dissatisfaction, so he protested silently. Shi juechi sat opposite. He looked at Shi Shaoqin and then at star. He didn''t know why. It was clear that the atmosphere was wrong, but he just couldn''t help laughing "Star doesn''t like being with his uncle?" Shi Jue Chi said to the end. Star stopped and looked at the stone Jue Chi opposite. As soon as his small face was bulging, he said angrily, "the stones are not together!" Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin and saw that the fundus of his eyes was soft and painful. "Stone has something to do..." Shi Shaoqin said softly. Star looked at him and didn''t know whether he was too angry or something. He threw a spoon stained with Risotto in his hand at Shi Shaoqin Just listen to a gentle ''Bang'', the spoon hit Shi Shaoqin''s forehead impartially Everyone held their breath, and their hearts were raised to their throat and stood there in silence. Even Shi Jue Chi looked at Shi Shaoqin with a slight frown. He saw his beautiful face gradually becoming dark Chapter 1080 Star didn''t seem to think he would throw the spoon on Shi Shaoqin''s head. His bright eyes twinkled and his small mouth looked down That way, I feel very tangled and don''t want to tangle. I want to feel guilty, but I think I''m not wrong. It''s Shi Shaoqin''s fault not to accompany him. The expression on his small face changed several times in a moment, and finally turned into a stubborn look at Shi Shaoqin. His small chin was slightly provoked and his face was provocative "Apologize!" Shi Shaoqin''s voice sank, and it seemed that the patience on the beautiful handsome face was gone at once. Star didn''t move and looked at Shi Shaoqin stubbornly. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes sank more and more, "apologize..." Everyone felt that Shi Shaoqin was really angry Naturally, it''s also the first time to get angry with star. One by one, they couldn''t help looking at star and were worried. After all, the atmosphere in Mo palace is obviously more peaceful after having star. No one likes to live in depression, at least occasionally. Shi Jue Chi twisted his eyebrows, "Shaoqin..." He is also worried that although Shaoqin dotes on star, star plays his temper in front of him "Wow!" Just as the atmosphere became more and more tense, star suddenly drooped his shoulders and began to cry. The tears came and poured out of his eyes Everyone couldn''t react for a moment. They all looked at star and were at a loss. Shi Shaoqin was still angry, but he saw star suddenly cry and frown. "The stone is fierce to me... Sobbing..." Star seems to have been wronged by heaven. His small shoulder is sobbing, and his voice is choking. "The stone doesn''t want me... The stone doesn''t want me... It''s cruel to me... Wow..." "..." Shi Shaoqin frowned deeper. "When will stone stop you?" "No stone, no star... Wuwuwuwuwu..." Star looked at Shi Shaoqin dimly with tearful eyes. After a while, his small face was covered with tears. "Stone also scolded me. Stone doesn''t like star anymore..." star accused and cried louder and louder, "wow... Wuwuwuwu!" Shi Shaoqin only felt that the position of his heart was pulled one by one. Under the double attack of star''s "complaint" and tears, where could he care to be angry? He got up and hurriedly picked up star "Sorry, the stone is bad!" Shi Shaoqin coaxed star awkwardly, "if the stone doesn''t want you, how can the stone be willing to be fierce? Good, don''t cry, huh?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The people in the restaurant were instantly silent by the current situation! One heart wails Qin Shao, it''s agreed to ask star to apologize. How did you finally apologize? What about your principles?! At the moment, their expressions are all windy. They look at Shi Shaoqin, who has been comforting star, and suddenly feel... That cold and bloodthirsty Qin Shao is a little cute! Shi Jue Chi drooped her eyes and shook her head with a shallow smile on her gentle face. What is he worried about? Shaoqin won''t really lose his temper in front of star. Besides, the little guy is very smart and naturally knows how to subdue Shaoqin Star is crying sadly. Maybe it''s because he won''t be with Shi Shaoqin because of his next reason. Maybe it''s because Shi Shaoqin just attacked him and couldn''t let Shi Shaoqin coax him. It just changed from crying to sobbing, and finally fell asleep crying on Shi Shaoqin''s shoulder But even though he fell asleep, his small body still smoked one by one, and he could love Shi Shaoqin to death. "You won''t decide to take star to do something because he cries?" Shi juechi asked slowly. "No..." Shi Shaoqin''s face was dignified. He went over there. Although he didn''t dare anyone to move star, he didn''t want any accident. Shi juechi listened and secretly relieved. Although Shaoqin didn''t say what to do, it''s not safe to think about it. "Just stay in the Mo palace!" Shi Shaoqin wanted to put star in bed to sleep for a while, but the little guy seemed to lose his sense of security. He didn''t wake up, but his little hand instinctively caught him. Shi Shaoqin simply slept with star in his arms and tried to give him a comfortable position. Shi Jue Chi saw all this in her eyes and felt a little warm in her heart. Don''t blame Shaoqin for his kindness to star. It''s worth relying on him. "What are you worried about?" Shi juechi asked. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, his narrow eyes narrowed slightly, and suddenly opened when it was about to become a gap. In fact, he doesn''t know what he''s worried about. It''s just that the matter falls on star. He seems a little reluctant to take risks. "This is your place. If it''s not safe here, Shaoqin..." Shi juechi said in a dignified voice, "it means that the place you built with one hand will no longer make you feel safe." In a word, it goes straight through Shi Shaoqin''s heart. He looked at Shi Jue Chi and said slowly after being silent: "man, you really can''t have weakness." Shi Jue Chi was stunned and then smiled, "but you''ve never been a person without weakness..." Shi Shaoqin''s face sank. He didn''t continue to discuss this topic. He just looked at star, who fell asleep on his shoulder and occasionally sobbed, and his heart became soft. ¡­¡­ Chen Shu stood outside the headquarters holding his breath, with a clean and beautiful face full of depression. This is the first time she has been so impulsive since she entered the police system, and also the first time she has been... Punished! Yang Jinyu, Qiao Rui and Lu Xiaowei watched from a distance, anxious one by one. "Do you want to come forward and ask what''s going on?" Lu Xiaowei pushed the mirror frame and asked. Yang Jinyu looked at him and his voice was always indifferent. "When the plan began to be implemented, there was no room for personal emotions, even..." he paused and his voice was obviously dignified. "Even if brother Yu had an accident, we were worried and couldn''t act casually." Lu Xiaowei suddenly stared, "yes, sister Yu has always been calm. Why today..." He was a little confused, but the technical otaku was naturally insensitive to some things, so he couldn''t think of a reason. Qiao Rui looked at Chen Yu from a distance with deep meaning. At the beginning, in fact, everyone is really just kidding for self entertainment But how do you feel? Something''s wrong?! The most important thing is that brother Yu''s several contacts with Chen Yu can be said... He was in front of him. When did they have an affair? Several people had different thoughts. On the one hand, they were worried about ye Chenyu''s safety, on the other hand, they couldn''t figure out Chen Yu''s situation at the moment. Just when these people were thinking, the people who had originally held the meeting in the headquarters came out one after another Finally, when everyone saw Xie Qifeng coming out, they looked at each other and strode over one after another Qiao Rui held his breath and asked hurriedly, "officer Xie, what''s the situation with brother Yu now?" Chapter 1081 Chen Yu didn''t speak, but looked at Xie Qifeng, and his lips unconsciously moved up. Xie Qifeng looked at everyone and then at Chen Yu. His voice said calmly: "the informant gave the news, and ye Chenyu was injured..." Their faces suddenly changed, and their eyes were filled with worry. "However, the man has been taken away by Maggie..." Xie Qifeng looked at Chen Yu again. "Your psychological analysis should be correct, at least in the past few days." People did not feel relieved because of Xie Qifeng''s words, but their faces were dignified. Judging from the situation in recent days, Maggie is not a good role at all However, they can only worry. Because they have their own responsibilities, they know it is dangerous and must go. "The most important thing for everyone these days is to be patient," Xie Qifeng looked across the crowd. "The action will start at any time, and it is possible to cooperate with Ye Chenyu..." Speaking of this, he looked at Chen. "If I can''t calm down, I don''t mind who will be kicked out of this action." Chen Yu suddenly clenched his hand and then released it. "Report... What happened just now, I promise, it won''t happen again." Lu Xiaowei swallowed involuntarily. Although the contact time with Chen is not that long, it is also clear how proud this person is. It''s not easy for her to admit her mistake. At this moment, she hasn''t been stimulated by Xie Qifeng''s insinuation and admits her mistake?! Xie Qifeng was obviously a little surprised, but his mood soon subsided. "Chen Yu, stay here. You can stand by first." Xie Qifeng said. Qiao Rui and others nodded, looked at Chen Yu one after another, turned and left. "I turned around and entered the command room with you......". Chen Shuo lowered his mouth, turned around and stepped into the command room with powerful steps. "Sit..." Xie Qifeng glanced at Chen Yu and put a cup of instant coffee in front of her. Chen Yu sat down and didn''t speak. After Xie Qifeng made himself a cup, he sat down in the diagonal position of Chen Yu. "I''ve never seen you so dispassionate," Xie Qifeng stared deeply at Chen. "I''m not interested in exploring other people''s privacy, but I don''t need to say how dangerous this mission is..." Chen Chen secretly gritted his teeth and nodded. "If you bring in personal feelings, I don''t think it''s appropriate..." When Xie Qifeng said this sentence, it was obvious that his sight was getting deeper and deeper, as if he wanted to see through Chen Chen at once. They are all trained together abroad, and they are also the last training students. In fact, I have a certain understanding of each other Chen Yu is beautiful and has excellent quality. Whether at home or abroad, there are many men who like her, but no one can get into Chen''s eyes. Ever since he asked Ye Chenyu to get close to Maggie, he felt the difference between Chen Yu and him. Maybe she didn''t find it herself, but he didn''t think she didn''t feel it at the moment. Chen Yu lowered his eyes and said nothing, and the corners of his mouth tightened. She felt a little ridiculous and her feelings were inexplicable However, just as she stood outside, she soon realized her problem. She worried that ye Chenyu was more worried than a colleague. Her worry made her lose her usual calm. "Chen Chen," Xie Qifeng took a sip of coffee, "our people and the police in Yuecheng are cooperating with this action... You gave the right way, but if you hit your dispassion, it will hurt Ye Chenyu?" A rhetorical question made Chen Yu suddenly raise her head. Her eyes twinkled with complex emotions. She looked at Xie Qifeng, and her lips looked at Xie Qifeng. She wanted to refute, but she found that she was unable to refute anything. "Next, waiting is also action..." Xie Qifeng said earnestly. Chen Yu took a breath and asked, "why is Ye Chenyu''s tracker in the waste area?" "Just got the news," Xie Qifeng said with appreciation. "The wind puppet group has dug up a lot of inside information over the years, basically with trackers on their bodies..." Chen Yu''s eyes widened. "I suddenly understand why your people will send Ye Chenyu here, but when you come together, you are not the leader." Xie Qifeng smiled with appreciation. "He''s too alert." Xie Qifeng''s words fell, and Chen suddenly remembered what Lu Bureau said when she took over the post of deputy bureau of the eastern district. "Xiao Yu, you should get in touch with Ye Chenyu more. He is the key training of the police station in the future..." "I read the information. I used to be an undercover?" Lu Ju smiled. "Don''t underestimate his undercover. Although he is infected with some ruffian Qi, I have to say that sometimes this ruffian Qi is really indispensable." Chen Yu disagreed. "The most important thing is that this person has a fresh mind and strong adaptability..." Lu bureau can''t hide the happiness of finding talents. "If there are more such people on the battle line, some tasks won''t be so difficult." At that time, although Chen Yu listened to the praise of Lu Bureau, he didn''t think that ye Chenyu was really strong. Although undercover for so many years, it can be washed away in the end... It''s hard to say that there is no element of luck. But at the moment, thanks to Xie Qifeng''s praise, Chen Yu understood Lu Ju''s deep meaning. At the same time, he had an inexplicable taste in his heart, which gradually filled the air. It felt as if she had been praised. "I''ll adjust well..." Chen raised his eyes and looked at Xie Qifeng. Xie Qifeng nodded. He still believed in Chen Yu''s ability. Time, a little bit of the past For the tense waiting task, and do not know what is the situation of Ye Chenyu, Chen and others, time is like a snail climbing. But for ye Chenyu, who was unconscious, it was the next morning when he woke up. There was a buzzing sound in my head. Ye Chenyu tightened his eyes and opened them slowly, but he closed his eyes again because of the strong light of the sun on the glass. After getting used to it for a while, ye Chenyu slowly opened it again The strange smell made him frown. "Wake up..." Maggie stepped in with enchanting steps, her big wavy chestnut hair scattered behind her, floating with her walk. Plus her hot clothes, the whole person is full of amorous feelings. When ye Chenyu saw Maggie, he was obviously annoyed. "Why, don''t you like to see me?" Maggie sat down by the bed, gently picked up Ye Chenyu''s chin with her fingernails, and pressed her face slowly, "if it weren''t for me, you''d be... Dead now!" Ye Chenyu raised his hand and knocked off Maggie''s hand holding his chin. "Thank you..." Cold words fell, and ye Chenyu wanted to get up. Ye Yu''s shoulders were pressed down, and Mai Qi''s hands were cold When ye Chenyu was overwhelmed, Maggie''s face was close to him! Chapter 1082 "How..." said Maggie coldly. "I saved you. Is that your attitude?" Because the two people are too close, Maggie''s words are very slow and frivolous As she spoke, the hot air with lip fragrance spread on Ye Chenyu''s face. Ye Chenyu''s heart is really hard to say! "Thanks, too. What do you want?" Ye Chenyu sneered at the irony, "is it difficult for me to make a promise?" Hearing Ye Chenyu''s words, Maggie directly ignored his sarcastic tone. She pointed her belly gently across Ye Chenyu''s cheek and said frivolously, "don''t you wronged?" Ye Chenyu felt sick Shit, men are sometimes a curse! Thinking like this, ye Chenyu didn''t show any on his face. He looked coldly at his face, which was still almost next to himself, with a trace of boredom in his eyes. Everyone has a desire to conquer. Whether men or women. The rich like to conquer, especially those with power. The difference between men and women is that when men conquer, they often lose interest. But women are emotional animals... They tend to rely more on what they conquer. This should be the message that Chen Jiaxi wanted to convey to him that day. "Get out of the way!" Ye Chenyu opened his mouth coldly when Maggie''s fingers had been drawn to his chest. Maggie stopped and felt Ye Chenyu''s indifference to her. Unexpectedly, there was no response When she got up, Maggie''s face was cold. Ye Chenyu looked back coldly and got up Because the action was too big and involved the bruise on his body, he grinned secretly. Shit, those people really didn''t leave their hands yesterday. Ye Chenyu got up and looked at his clean clothes. He didn''t care who changed them for him Anyway, it can''t be Maggie. Maggie was still sitting by the bed. She lifted her eyes slightly and watched Ye Chenyu go out with her shoes on. "You don''t have money, and the police on your side are looking for you..." Maggie said slowly. "Those people were waiting nearby yesterday. I can guarantee that as long as you go out and wait for you, there will be only one result." Ye Chenyu listened and stopped with some hesitation. Maggie was obviously satisfied to see ye Chenyu''s response. She got up with a charming smile and walked slowly to Ye Chenyu Maggie was very tall, wearing Martin boots with almost no heels, and also went to Ye Chenyu''s nose. Slightly raise your head, charming eyes to Ye Chenyu''s complex and tangled sight "Ye Chenyu, in my place, you can gamble, or even do whatever you want..." Maggie''s voice is always slow, just like trying to seduce other people''s thoughts. "But once you go out, you will be either killed or arrested back to state Z for trial!" Ye Chenyu''s sight became more and more complicated. Even, changing emotions back and forth "To be happy or painful is just your decision!" As Maggie''s words fell, her vision gradually became familiar. Ye Chenyu still didn''t speak, but it was obvious that his face was more complicated. "Take your time and think about it..." Maggie didn''t force him, "let the servant come to me." Then she kissed Ye Chenyu on the cheek Looking at the red lipstick on Ye Chenyu''s face, she turned around and walked out with satisfaction "Get him some clean clothes and make him something to eat." Outside, came the voice of Maggie''s command Ye Chenyu raised his hand and wiped the place kissed by Mai Qier, spitting secretly. He looked around the room, his eyes crossed the corners sharply, and there were some hidden places. In a circle, he didn''t see a hidden camera or something. Of course, he can''t fully guarantee it. After all, if you want to find a micro pinhole, you can only rely on luck without special equipment "Sir, you can eat." The servant came in and put the food on the table. Ye Chenyu walked over and looked at the rice and fruit filled with the characteristics of M country. He frowned slightly. "The lady said that if Mr. doesn''t like it, we can prepare it separately." The servant''s voice was timid. "However, the young lady also said that Sir hasn''t had a decent meal for several days. He should like it." Ye Chenyu looked at the servant coldly and didn''t speak. He sat down and took chopsticks and began to eat. He is really hungry. He hasn''t eaten well for a few days. Coupled with physical overdraft, he consumes a lot of energy At the moment, as long as you can put it in your mouth, what else can you choose? "How dare you eat what I have here?" Maggie''s voice suddenly appeared at the door. Ye Chenyu looked at her and said coldly, "don''t I come to you when I figure it out?" "But I didn''t say, I won''t come when you don''t find me..." Maggie raised her eyebrow and thought it was fun to talk to Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu is obviously disgusted with such reckless entanglement of women. He continued to eat and said coldly, "if you add food in it, I will despise you." In this case, with a look through. Maggie immediately smiled happily. That smile was not disguised, but from the heart. "You just believe I won''t?" Maggie asked, "you don''t know me..." Ye Chenyu looked at Mai Qier coldly, drank a mouthful of soup, swallowed the things in his mouth, and then asked, "did you do it?" "No!" "That''s enough!" Ye Chenyu sneered and continued to eat. The servant was a little trembling. I was afraid that ye Chenyu''s words would stimulate Maggie and make her angry with them However, unexpected. Instead of getting angry, Maggie looked very happy. "Get another bowl of noodles..." Ye Chenyu looked at the servant and said. He has no self-knowledge of "guests" like that. It''s just the posture of the host. The servant didn''t move, just looked at Maggie. "Go." Maggie picked her jaw. The servant answered and hurried to give ye Chenyu noodles. "If you eat so much at once, you won''t be afraid of indigestion later?" Maggie sat down opposite Ye Chenyu and looked at him with a blurred smile. Ye Chenyu was still very indifferent. He just looked at the Maggie opposite his eyes coldly, took back his eyes, looked to one side and drank the soup. When ye Chenyu finished his soup, noodles came. The sound of "sizzling" came from time to time, and Maggie watched Ye Chenyu eat. Ye Chenyu didn''t care about her, just eating and thinking about what to do next If you want to be alone and make yourself more and more attractive to Maggie, obviously... This is a problem! Chapter 1083 Chen Yu sat on the grass and his eyes fell on the guns studied by Yang Jinyu and Lu Xiaowei Gradually, the focus is lost. Qiao Rui came out for a walk, sat down beside Chen, pulled out some grass, and soon made up a grass grasshopper. "Send you..." Qiao Rui handed it to Chen Yu. Chen Yu looked at the grasshopper and Qiao Rui, frowning slightly, "I don''t play this!" Qiao Rui smiled, "brother Yu taught me when I was training in the field..." Chen Yu silently took over. She is not a hypocritical person. What she needs and wants... It''s good to be clear. When she was young, she didn''t understand the importance of what she needed, and later she lost more. Qiao Rui''s eyes also fell in front. "Brother Yu is very good," he said with a smile. "I always think that brother Yu is so evil. If anyone can marry him in the future, he will not be lonely." Chen Yu did not speak, nor did he have the lofty arrogance of the past. "Before, we formed a group to accompany the lawyer group to go abroad," Qiao Rui looked at Chen. "We all thought he would form a pair with Li Bian, but in the end, Li and mo were together." "Mo Shaochen?" Chen Yu questions. "Well," Qiao Rui nodded, "I also learned recently that brother Yu and he are half brothers." Chen Chen has heard Ye Chenyu say this, which is not surprising. "I occasionally wonder if brother Yu has no intention to argue with Li because he is his brother..." Qiao Rui pulled the grass again, "but later I think, men, emotional things are not all." Chen Yu blackened his face. "You mean, let me take my heart?" "Of course not..." Qiao Rui smiled. "In fact, I think brother Yu is still very good to you." Chen Yu was silent again. "When we climbed the mountain, you didn''t like to eat self cooked rice, so he took it..." Qiao Rui said while weaving grass grasshoppers. "It feels delicious, but we all started fresh, and then we didn''t like to eat it." "Well..." "But he is used to being nice to others..." Qiao Rui made up another one, "sometimes, you can''t tell whether there is any special meaning..." For this point, Chen Yu is recognized from the past few days. Qiao Rui played with the grasshopper in his hand, and his eyes fell in front again. Youyuan said, "I can''t think of what kind of woman can get along with brother Yu. I just think that if there is a chance, everyone should not give themselves a chance to regret." Then he looked at Chen Yu and smiled, "don''t you think so?" Chen Yu frowned slightly and didn''t answer. Chen Yu''s arrogance is related to his family superiority and his own ability. Qiao Rui thinks that although she is proud, she has a real temperament Anyway, brother Yu also likes to flirt with her. It''s also a question worth exploring whether the boss and subordinates are under the pressure. "I''m worried about him, but I don''t know if it''s feelings..." Chen Yu looked at the grasshopper in his hand and said, "or I don''t know whether it''s gratitude or the feeling between men and women." Qiao Rui doesn''t understand. "But anyway, I''m worried about his accident. I''m very worried!" Chen Yu pulled it off with self mockery. Bring her here. Ye Chenyu is actually selfish. He hopes to help her cross the gap But it''s also risky, because he can''t control whether she will be impulsive or not. "Nothing will happen..." Qiao Rui paused. "I believe brother Yu. He is the most alert and the most adaptable policeman I have ever seen." After the words fell, Qiao Rui looked at Chen Yu and got up and walked over to Yang Jinyu and Lu Xiaowei. Chen Yu looked at his back and gradually lost his mind This is not the time to talk about love between children and women. She just hopes that ye Chenyu can come back safely, the wind puppet group can collapse, and no more children will be hurt. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. Jane packed J''s luggage. "I''ll pack you the necessary drugs on the Plateau..." Jane Mo said anxiously, "what''s the matter? Remember to call ah Chen, huh?" "I''m not a child..." J rolled his eyes. Jane Mo looked at the childish J on her face and smiled. "Hey, Jane Mo, what do you mean by that expression?" J rolled his eyes dissatisfied. "I''m not interested... I think you''re right. Well, that''s it!" Jane Mo nodded with her head, but the smile at the corners of her mouth was deeper. J frowned and muttered, "hum, look at the one in your stomach, I won''t care about you..." Jane Mo picked her eyebrows and continued to pack J''s luggage, while explaining some precautions. "You haven''t been there," J was really nagged by Jane Mo, "don''t give me the strategies Amway you found on the Internet..." He had a headache. He went to the table and sat down in front of Jane Jay. "How can Jane Mo talk so much since she was found pregnant?" J can''t stand lying on the table. Jane Jie continued to look at the extracurricular book, "I guess mommy''s baby this time is very lively." As he spoke, his small face waved a smile, looking forward to and happy. But when it comes to babies, J doesn''t complain at once Oh, in another eight months, someone will call him uncle! The elated J didn''t realize at the moment that the newborn baby couldn''t speak. "I have a travel log here. Maybe you can use it..." Cen Lanxi came out with an old notebook and handed it to J. J looked through it. "It''s much more useful than what Jane Mo picked up from the Internet. Thank you, aunt." CEN Lanxi chuckled, "I have many travel logs, which are explored with Beichen''s father, which is very suitable for you..." "When I come back, I''ll choose some good trips." J pick eyebrows. CEN Lanxi nodded with a smile, "it''s all in the study. If you need it, turn it over by yourself!" "Mom, don''t spoil him..." Jane Mo''s voice came at the right time. "Turn around and mess up your study." "It''s all right. Clean up when you''re in a mess." CEN Lanxi said with a smile, "besides, how many times can you mess up?" Jian Mo looked up at Cen Lanxi, smiled and shrugged, "if you say so, J will be able to mess you up... Unscrupulous." "You know..." J was immediately dissatisfied. "Your destructive power is not one or two days." Jane Jay make complaints about it. J looked down angrily. He didn''t know what to mumble in his mouth... Causing everyone''s laughter. Gu Moyuan came out of his study and saw this scene. He couldn''t help but breathe a sigh of relief This is like a home! In Gu''s manor, he is harmonious and happy. In Wang Qiang''s office of the General Administration, there is a sense of dignity. "Chen Shao," said Wang Qiang in a subdued voice, "if the identities of Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu are taken back, I''m afraid things will be very complicated." Chapter 1084 "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly. Wang Qiang''s face became more dignified. For the first time, he had contacted Interpol and asked Ye Chenyu to go undercover. At that time, according to the news from Gu Beichen, a joint deployment had been made. But if the person who brought the news went back, I''m afraid these arrangements might become a heart disease of "better kill by mistake than let go". Wang Qiang looked at Gu Beichen and moved his mouth. He wanted him to think of a way. But I feel a little embarrassed. "Your deployment here, please contact me at any time..." Gu Beichen said, putting down his overlapping legs and getting up. The handsome face, as cold as a carving, had no superfluous emotion. He nodded with Wang Qiang and turned away. Driving the car, Gu Beichen went all the way back to Gu''s manor. The dignity of the outside has been restrained when returning to the manor. "Has j gone yet?" Gu Beichen asked. "Well, the driver sent him to the airport..." Jian Mo answered, looked up at Gu Beichen and asked, "is it not going well?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Jane Mo smiled. "You''ve always been a good disguise. I just feel it." Gu Beichen sighed quietly, grabbed Jian Mo and sat down on the sofa. "At present, it is still within the control range, and we have to take a step by step." Jane Mo was silent and nodded. "Chenyu is a friend and Shaochen''s only blood relative now..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth faintly, and his voice was soothing. "If Shaoqin agreed to help, there would be no big deal, huh?" "Yes." Jane answered. Although Jian Mo always has complex emotions towards Shi Shaoqin because of Xiao Yan, she still believes in his ability. "Take Xiao Jie out to dinner in the evening?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo wondered. "Xiaojie is going to tour with Su sanshao," Gu Beichen said with a smile. "His eyes brightened when he saw him looking at a magazine yesterday." Jian Mo was even more puzzled. The milk bag didn''t have the same high desire for anything as children of the same age. Even if there was, it was dressed like "Gu Beichen". "A theme restaurant opened today, and there is a theme of change..." Gu Beichen smiled. "I have a reservation." Jian Mo was relieved, "you have to take care of the company, deal with Ye Chenyu, and think about your son... It''s hard." Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo on the forehead, "it''s not hard to have you around." "Sweet mouth." Jane Mo kissed Gu Beichen at the corner of his mouth. Just wanted to leave, Gu Beichen grabbed him and kissed him fiercely People in the whole manor are used to showing their love to two people at any time. They just look at them helplessly or with a smile, and then they are busy with their own affairs. ¡­¡­ Maggie villa, Yangon city. Ye Chenyu woke up the next day. Obviously, his spirit is much better than yesterday. When he got up in the morning, he trimmed his face. Fortunately, he changed his mood... He left his beard that he had grown in the past two days, but just cleaned it up a little. Ye Chenyu looked at himself in the mirror with gauze wrapped around his head, but it didn''t seem to have any impact on him. He whistled to the mirror, and ye Chenyu felt great! Leaving the washroom, the servant outside has finished breakfast He sat down directly. Sure enough, Maggie arrived in a short time. "One day, you are at ease." As Maggie sat down, the servant added tableware. Ye Chenyu sneered, "eat, drink and sleep... Natural and comfortable." Maggie raised her eyebrows. "So you''re satisfied?" She smiled and said, "there''s a big market at Bailemen in the evening. Would you like to come with me?" When it comes to gambling, ye Chenyu''s eyes brighten. But then he pretended to be angry, "I don''t have money..." he bit the steamed stuffed bun, "besides, aren''t you afraid of the police coming to the door with me?" "In Yangon, what am I afraid of?" Ye Chenyu stopped and looked at Maggie with disdain. "Don''t talk. You seem to have more skills... Sometimes, I''m afraid I don''t know how to die." His words fell, and Maggie didn''t know what to do. Danto and Miao angdeng, who had been standing behind, looked angry for a moment. Maggie raised her hand slightly, and the two talents gouged out Ye Chenyu and took back their posture. Ye Chenyu looked at the two people provocatively, and his sarcastic expression was not concealed. It made Danto and Miao angdeng round their eyes one by one, but no one dared to do it because of Maggie. Maggie was so fond of Ye Chenyu''s tone that he couldn''t hide his sight. "Just say, do you want to gamble..." asked Maggie. "I''m a gambler, but I''m not skilled. If I lose, I don''t have money to pay back..." Ye Chenyu lifted and folded one foot directly and casually... Stepped on the chair, and the whole person couldn''t do it. "Also, promise by example, I''m not interested." Maggie raised her eyebrows. "I won''t force you..." she smiled. "But if you want to fuck me, it''s your own business." There was no cover up for the big stabbing words. Even the desire for ye Chenyu in his eyes was diffuse Ye Chenyu looked at Mai Qier and smiled. It was a sneer of skin laughing and flesh not laughing. "Oh, that..." Ye Chenyu put down his chopsticks and suddenly got up. He put his hands on the table and stepped on the feet of the chair. Just when Danto and Miao angdeng thought he was going to do something and looked alert When he leaned forward and his face was almost close to Maggie, he said evil and ambiguous, "then I''ll make you want to be immortal and die!" As he spoke, he did not forget to wink at Maggie and make a loud tongue at the same time. Later, Maggie felt that she gradually lost her ability to think about ye Chenyu because of his move. Ye Chenyu''s evil and ruffian, coupled with his pride, it''s hard not to be hooked by him when he flirts with women Unfortunately, it was too late to know! "OK..." Maggie put her arm on the table, held her chin in her hand, winked at Ye Chenyu and said in bewilderment, "then I''ll wait for you... I want to be immortal and die on me!" Ye Chenyu smiled and sat down again to eat. From beginning to end, he ignored Maggie''s two bodyguards. This woman, at first glance, is dissatisfied with her desire I''m afraid these two bodyguards don''t do less with her on weekdays! Ye Chenyu was a little nauseous, thinking that the sacrifice was so great that he must submit an application for spiritual pension with Chen Yu. If not, he will Ye Chenyu suddenly stopped thinking and smiled secretly. It''s better to tease her without turning back. Anyway, that woman likes to pretend to be arrogant and indifferent Occasionally, it''s very interesting. "Sneeze!" While ye Chenyu was eating and running the train with his head full, Chen Yu suddenly sneezed The crowd looked at her and she frowned inexplicably. How do you feel that there is a dark wind behind you?! Chapter 1085 "Team Xie..." Interpol hurried in from the outside and strode straight towards Xie Qifeng. "News?" Xie Qifeng asked with staring eyes. The man nodded. "The insider gave the news. Today, there is a large gambling game in Bailemen. It is estimated that Maggie will go." Xie Qifeng lowered his eyes and was silent. Then he raised his eyes and asked, "is there any news? How''s Ye Chenyu?" The man shook his head, "the people we can arrange in Maggie''s villa are just chores, and we can''t get any useful news at all..." Xie Qifeng''s face was a little dignified. "Oh, yes." The man suddenly remembered something, "this morning, the kitchen made a lot of breakfast in Z country." He hesitated, "team Xie, does it mean that ye Chenyu should be okay?" Xie Qifeng breathed a sigh of relief and nodded. "From this point of view, it should be made for ye Chenyu. I''m afraid it doesn''t matter." After a pause, he paced back and forth in the command room with his hands in his pockets Two back and forth down, he suddenly stopped, suddenly turned around and looked at the man and said, "inform the police over there in Yuecheng and cooperate to catch Ye Chenyu." "Yes!" The man answered and turned away from the command room. Xie Qier leaned on the edge of the table and finally looked at Bai Qier Perhaps, some dramas need to be heavier to accelerate their development. Xie Qifeng got up and went out. Looking around, my sight finally fell on Chen Chen sitting on the grass Xie Qifeng walked over. Hearing the sound of footsteps, Chen Yu turned his head and saw that it was Xie Qifeng, pulling down the corners of his mouth. Xie Qifeng sat down on the side of Chen Yu and roughly said that Bailemen and Maggie had planned to let the police in Yuecheng cooperate with the action. "You mean, me too?" Chen asked with certainty. Xie Qifeng nodded. "The longer it takes, I''m afraid there are more variables." He sighed deeply, "although it''s not the best policy to take risks in desperation, but if your analysis is good, I believe Ye Chenyu can cut in every stitch..." After these days of action, Xie Qifeng is still very sure of Ye Chenyu''s ability. In addition, Chen Yu''s Thoughts on Ye Chenyu now say that it is acting, but it can also be regarded as acting in his true color I''m afraid, to some extent, it''s still worth a try. "OK." Chen Ying answered without the slightest hesitation. "You need to be a little personal this time," Chen Feng said. "Do you understand?" "I understand." Chen Yu looked ahead. "At a critical time, it''s not just about the task, but also the safety of the undercover personnel in front. As the rear, even if it can''t help, at least it can''t hold back." "Well, if only you knew." Xie Qifeng nodded. Chen Yu looked at him and said, "I''ll prepare..." she got up and strode towards the camp. ¡­¡­ As one of the famous casinos in Yangon, Bailemen often puts out some special gambling games in order to attract more people. Maggie likes to come to Bailemen very much, not because it is the largest in Yangon, but because it can often find the stimulation that makes the blood boil. "Miss, if you win today''s game..." Danto glanced at the distance, with a cigarette in his mouth, because when he got to the casino, ye Chenyu, whose eyes were out of control, said in a low voice, "100 kilograms of goods." When Maggie heard this, she couldn''t help laughing enchanting She looked at Ye Chenyu, who had been staring at the gambling table and took back her sight, "that''s just right." Danto also looked at Ye Chenyu, then looked at Miao angdeng, and immediately understood what Maggie meant. Maggie walked to Ye Chenyu and wrapped her hand around his arm. Seeing that he wanted to pull away, she provocatively raised her chin and grabbed Ye Chenyu''s arm. Ye Chenyu glanced at him with some annoyance. He saw that Maggie was proud. At last, although he didn''t smoke again, he didn''t compromise at all. "Warm up first?" Maggie raised her eyebrows and looked at the gambling table. Ye Chenyu''s "heart" has itched badly, but he wants to install it again. The whole look in his eyes is a little complicated. Maggie couldn''t see ye Chenyu''s mind and didn''t pierce him. She took him to the gambling table Danto and Miao angdeng had cleared out two positions, and Maggie took Ye Chenyu and sat down. "You bet..." Ye Chenyu looked at Maggie again. Obviously, he couldn''t help it, but he also tried to curb the impulse to gamble. Maggie smiled at him seductively, and her fingers crossed Ye Chenyu''s cheek seductively. Finally, she suddenly picked up his chin, "this is a warm-up. When the big market opens, I''ll make you high to the sky." She said, suddenly pinching Ye Chenyu''s chin with her fingers and drawing close to herself. Ye Chenyu''s eyes turned into a vortex. Just as he was breathing with Maggie, he put on a crooked smile on one side of his mouth, "I''ll see." Maggie smiled and gently let go of Ye Chenyu, completely ignoring the eyes of others, just picked up her chin and looked at the Dutch official. Everyone in the casino knows Maggie. She doesn''t like small venues, only big ones. But taking a man to gamble, it looks like she raised it... For the first time. Inevitably, the people in the casino looked at Ye Chenyu curiously. At the beginning of the gambling game, the warm-up is naturally just a warm-up But ye Chenyu "likes" gambling too much. When he makes a bet, it''s just like when dealing with Maggie. "Do you think he''s pretending or..." Danto whispered to Miao angdeng, but he didn''t look away from ye Chenyu, whose blood was high because of gambling. Miao angdeng glanced at Danto and said indifferently, "miss is not a fool. Whether ye Chenyu is pretending or something... She knows." Miao Deng didn''t move his eyes again. "Grass!" At the right time, ye Chenyu heard a voice of dissatisfaction After a few games, he won one game and soon lost all his warm-up money. "Do you want to continue?" Mai Qi''er looked at Ye Chenyu''s obvious appearance and asked with a smile. Ye Chenyu wanted to say no with backbone, but he listened to the boiling noise of the whole audience. He clenched his teeth secretly, stared at Maggie and said, "continue." Maggie''s eyes deepened and motioned for Danto. Danto took out several piles of cash from his bag and threw it in front of Ye Chenyu Maggie grabbed Ye Chenyu''s collar with a timely hand and suddenly pulled it to herself. "Gambler..." as she spoke, Maggie''s lips occasionally seemed to have ye Chenyu''s lips. "Sooner or later, you will lose your soul. No matter how arrogant you are, I have to grind it flat for you!" Maggie looked at Ye Chenyu''s eyes tightly, and didn''t let go of his emotion. Is it a disguise or something? The eyes won''t lie Chapter 1086 Ye Chenyu''s vision is complex and wants to resist, but he can''t ignore the desire stimulated by gambling. That kind of complex sadness gradually came up from the bottom of my eyes Bit by bit, it''s like tearing him apart. Maggie looked at Ye Chenyu''s complicated sight, and the smile from the corners of her mouth gradually aroused, and even the fundus of her eyes gradually overflowed with a touch of charming tenderness. She could tell at a glance whether she was a real gambler. In this way, ye Chenyu lives in the bright world, but finally enters the tangled and complex heart under the rugged darkness because of gambling. It''s not the first time for her to see Pornography, gambling, drugs As long as you like the same thing, there is no one who can''t fall, and there is no will that can''t be destroyed. Maggie slowly let go of Ye Chenyu and lifted her eyelids slightly upward. "I''ll go to the bathroom and you go on..." said Maggie. "When I get back, the time will be about the same." Ye Chenyu didn''t speak, but his eyes were lifted down with Maggie''s action. At the right time, his temples moved because of forbearance. Maggie didn''t let go of his little moves. Watching him indifferently take the money and start betting, the corners of his mouth smiled and left with enchanting steps Cheating is actually very simple, but it is also very difficult. As long as you believe you are a gambler, then you are a gambler. After so many years of undercover career, ye Chenyu has not met the same undercover policeman who finally degenerated because he was infected with those bad habits. I''ve seen too much. Although I''m pretending at this moment, I''m inexplicably sad. There were cries everywhere, and the sound of shouting and scolding was endless. In this depressed country, heaven and hell have always been just one step away. "Miss, there are plain clothes from country Z outside." Miao angdeng said. Maggie looked at Ye Chenyu, who was excited because he had won two games in a row, and said slowly, "no matter." Miao angdeng looked at Maggie as if he didn''t understand. "Many times, many systems in country Z are troublesome." Maggie smiled and said, "for example, even if you are undercover, if you kill your own side or innocent people, you will be sentenced..." Miao angdeng doesn''t know about country Z, but he has heard of similar things more or less. "Whether ye Chenyu is true or false, it''s clear to see where his bottom line is." With that, Maggie walked proudly to Ye Chenyu. This time, ye Chenyu was obviously more lucky than before. He not only didn''t lose, but also won. Even, I won back all the money I lost for the first time "It''s almost time." Maggie looked at the money on the table. "These are yours." "I''ll take it and give you the principal." Ye Chenyu took four bundles of cash from a pile of money and smiled at Maggie. Mai Qier smiled from heart to heart, and ye Chenyu continued his arrogance. Beckoned Danto to clean up the money, and Maggie took Ye Chenyu and went into the big market. Just after they went in, two plainclothes policemen sneaked into the field and their eyes fell on the last figure of Ye Chenyu. "Look for opportunities." Said one of them. The other nodded, and then they dispersed Time, little by little. The gambling in the big market is in full swing. A hundred kilos of goods is more attractive than cash for country m and people who come here. After all, after most of the gold Sanjiao goods were contracted by Mo palace... The number of 100 kilograms is absolutely attractive and exciting. The gambling game has reached the most critical time. Whoever can take the 100 kilograms of goods depends on the last game. Ye Chenyu''s palms are sweating. He doesn''t know what he won in the last gamble. He just looks at so many gold bars on the table and can''t do without a light in his eyes. "Please open your cards!" The Dutch official said in English. The crowd opened the cards in turn. Someone who was already younger than others called out his curse and looked unwilling. When it was Ye Chenyu''s turn, he felt his palms sweating. He looked at the Maggie sitting beside him and the gold bars in the middle of the table. He wanted to swear. This corrupt and dirty country! "Don''t worry about it..." Maggie thought Ye Chenyu was too nervous, and said soothingly, "there''s no way to lose. If you win, you''ll earn." Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth and closed his eyes. The gambler blew his breath towards the card in his hand Even, because of tension, a thin layer of sweat overflowed from his forehead. Maggie has always been indifferent. A hundred kilos of goods may be necessary for others, but for her, it is dispensable Of course, winning is the best. After all She''s still waiting to see a good play. Just as Maggie''s deep eye socket became more and more profound with her thoughts, ye Chenyu suddenly opened his eyes. Because he exerted too much force, the blue tendons in his neck were exposed. I saw him throw out the card in his hand Spade q! It''s not the biggest, but it''s not small... At least, it''s the highest card on the table at present. Ye Chenyu''s breath is a little messy. Compared with the gambling outside, the excitement here is absolutely exciting. Ye Chenyu nervously watched the next people uncover the card. As they were younger than him, his heart was about to rise to his throat and ready to get out. There''s only one left. The whole Bureau looked at the last person who had not opened the card, with complex eyes. The man swallowed involuntarily, his Adam''s apple rolled, and he was as nervous as anyone. He looked at Ye Chenyu''s direction, looked at his cards, bit his teeth and opened his own card! All eyes fell on it It''s also a Q! Unfortunately, compared with Ye Chenyu''s spade Q, no one can be bigger than him except K and a. "Hahaha..." Ye Chenyu stared, "Teng" stood up and looked at the last square piece Q, laughing that there was no way to stop it. He looked at Maggie and didn''t know if he was too excited. He suddenly leaned over and hugged her. "See, see..." Ye Chenyu stared, laughing even more excited, and even broke his voice, "I won!" With such a heavy hug from ye Chenyu, Maggie felt that the position of her heart was shocked. She never felt that way. It''s like someone else''s happiness to share with you, or the first instinctive consciousness Maggie smiled charming and moved her deep eye socket. Looking at the excited Ye Chenyu, her smile deepened. Compared with Ye Chenyu''s happiness, the people on the whole gambling table looked gloomy, especially the last one. "Miss Mai, I''ll order someone to send the gold bars to your villa. As for..." "Then I''ll take 10 percent," Maggie interrupted the casino man. "Send the rest together." The casino man nodded and motioned to his subordinates. Soon, the casino man brought a black backpack. "Take this and go with me to a place..." Maggie looked at Ye Chenyu, motioned for the black backpack and said. Chapter 1087 Ye Chenyu was so happy that he subconsciously took over the backpack after listening to Maggie say so. After he carried it on his back, he reacted, "what''s in it?" "A gift for a friend..." said Maggie casually. She took Ye Chenyu''s arm and went out Ye Chenyu frowned slightly, as if he could guess what was inside, and seemed unwilling to think more. The tangled emotion, without any loss, crossed Maggie''s line of sight. She smiled secretly, motioned to Danto and Miao angdeng, and they left Bailemen. "Ye Chenyu left..." The two plainclothes who came in before said to the hidden walkie talkie. Immediately, the two pretended to be nothing and followed out Maggie and ye Chenyu got into the car, which was driven by Danto. Ye Chenyu looked at the black backpack he had taken to one side, and his heart was a little sudden. "It''ll be delivered later. I''ll take you to the ice spring..." said Maggie. "This day, ice spring is the most comfortable... It''s more comfortable than hot spring in winter..." She didn''t go on, but looked at Ye Chenyu and smiled. Any man can understand what to say below. Ice water stimulates adrenaline. For men, such a place is the most beautiful paradise of ice and fire. Of course, she means Physically! ¡­¡­ Chen Chen sat in a car with a local license plate, some broken. "We didn''t say hello to country m this time," said the co pilot, "so it''s more convenient for us to act and cooperate with Ye Chenyu." After all, they can''t be blatant. In the end, there are many things to avoid. "Yes." Chen Yu looked at the time, and the receiver in his ear heard the dynamics in front of him from time to time, "I feel that Maggie is intentional." She frowned slightly. The man in front smiled, "Maggie is not that easy to deal with." Chen Yu''s eyes were slightly cold, and his face was a little dignified. "But it also gives us a chance, doesn''t it?" The people in front of you are ready to look back and sigh "Sure." "Well," the man in front nodded, "according to the timing, we should convince Maggie at one fell swoop." "Yes!" Chen Ying answered, opened the door, took a cap and got out of the car. ¡­¡­ "It''s in that restaurant. You send it and come back," Maggie pointed to the restaurant in front. "I''ll wait for you in the car." "OK." Ye Chenyu got off the bus. Because it was the afternoon, no one ate at this time, and the waiter in the restaurant was lying lazily on the table dozing off. Ye Chenyu doesn''t know who to give the things to. He thinks it should be the restaurant owner?! Thinking, others have stepped up the steps Suddenly! "Ye Chenyu!" Someone shouted behind him. Ye Chenyu stopped suddenly. He held the bag in his hand and turned slowly Chen Yu looked at him with a complicated look on his face. Secretly spit, ye Chenyu looked at the restaurant and couldn''t care so much at the moment. He threw his backpack behind his back and ran away At the right time, just listen to a few voices from behind. "Chen Chen, isn''t it Ye Chenyu?" "It''s him. Don''t let him run away!" "Chase!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± While the voice fell, ye Chenyu obviously felt the footsteps of several people chasing frantically. Fortunately, it''s in country M. they must be sneaky to catch him, and they don''t dare to disturb the local police Ye Chenyu ran desperately, seven turns and eight turns. But the people in the back are in hot pursuit. They can''t get rid of each other like dog skin plaster. As ye Chenyu ran, he took out his cell phone and called Maggie. "Where are you?" As soon as the phone was connected, Maggie''s voice came with worry. "I was chased by our people. In the alley, you meet me at the intersection of the back alley..." Ye Chenyu''s panting voice bumped because of the big run. Maggie motioned to Danto, "hold on, I''ll go right away." "Hurry up, I''ll be finished if I''m fucking taken away..." Ye Chenyu''s voice was obviously irritable. Maggie answered and hurriedly told Danto to drive. Ye Chenyu continued to run. With more and more time, he obviously began to pant. But even so, there are still two people behind. "Really desperately..." Ye Chenyu Tucao down, make complaints about running. I don''t know how long Ye Chenyu ran back and forth. Finally, he got rid of the people behind him and hurried to the place agreed with Maggie. Suddenly Ye Chenyu stopped. While he was panting, he looked at Chen Chen, who was pointing a gun at him in front of him, and grinned secretly. "Ye Chenyu, come back with me!" Chen Chen gritted his teeth, "you can''t run away today." Ye Chenyu bared his teeth, glared fiercely and said, "Chen, do you have to see me dead to make you happy?" "I don''t care -" Chen shouted, "you go back with me, you must go back with me today!" "I won''t go back with you!" Ye Chenyu said coldly. Chen Yu seemed to have been stimulated. With red eyes, she roared, "if you don''t go back with me, you''ll stay here forever..." Full of desperate words, showing forbearance, but it is not difficult to see that Chen has been unable to face such Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu walked over step by step, "why, do you want to kill me?" Light eh''s words were ironic, "Chen, this is the embodiment of your love for me?" "You are not the leaf Chenyu I love, you are not!" Chen Yu''s eyes turned red. "You even shot a Rui. You''re not the one I love anymore, aren''t you!" Her eyes became scarlet. "What''s in your backpack? Is it a poison?" There was a glimmer of hope in the questioning. She hoped, ye Chenyu denied. But ye Chenyu didn''t! "Ye Chenyu, how many people did that thing hurt? You''re a policeman. You know very well... Why do you want to degenerate like this?!" Chen Yu asked painfully. "I am willing to degenerate, so you want to kill me..." Ye Chenyu stared angrily, "really?!" As he spoke, the man had come to Chen Yu. "Chen Chen," Ye Chenyu suddenly buckled Chen Chen Chen''s gun and pulled it. The muzzle of the gun was aimed at his chest, "then kill me... Kill me!" "Do you think I dare not?" Chen Yu screamed wildly and looked at Shang Ye Chenyu. The two quickly exchanged eyes. "Chenyu, let me shoot you here forever......". "Ah --" Chen Yu shouted, looking at Ye Chenyu''s eyes without any regret, it was like despair to collapse, and his fingers pulled the trigger uncontrollably Chapter 1088 Just when Chen Yu pulled the trigger halfway, ye Chenyu suddenly looked at him. Chen Yu''s pupils suddenly expanded, as if he had foreseen what would happen next, but it was too late The sound of "ah" came. Chen Yu only felt that her wrist was numb and sore. The gun originally in her hand had reached Ye Chenyu. She looked at Ye Chenyu with complex emotions. Her face and eyes were full of incredible. Ye Chenyu raised his gun to Chen Yu indifferently, "I can''t go back anymore..." He retreated towards the alley he had agreed with Maggie. "Chen Yu, I don''t want to die..." Ye Chenyu''s voice also became indifferent. "After so many years, I''m not willing to die!" He retreated slowly, "I lied to you this time. Come with you, and I never thought of going back." Chen Yu''s breath began to be short. She couldn''t believe Ye Chenyu''s indifferent attitude towards her with a gun. "You think it''s good for me to use you..." Ye Chenyu sneered. "Up to now, we are people on two roads and can never be in one world, okay?" "I don''t understand..." Chen Chen gritted his teeth and cried, "Ye Chenyu, I only know that I can''t take you back today. I''d rather you die -" Ye Chenyu frowned and saw that Chen Yu wanted to come towards him as crazy as he was. "Stop!" Ye Chenyu dropped his hand slightly and heard a bang at Chen Yu''s feet. Chen Yu suddenly stopped, his eyes wide open. In an instant, big tears spilled over the eyes Chen Yu''s eyelids trembled slightly, followed closely, and his lips trembled, "are you going to kill me?" "Aren''t you going to kill me?" Ye Chenyu asked angrily. Chen Shu''s lips trembled even more. She didn''t know whether it was because of Ye Chenyu''s disgust at the moment or something. She even seemed to suffocate her heart. "Chenyu, look back... OK?" Chen Yu''s eyes twinkled and begged. She wanted to get close to Ye Chenyu step by step "You and I will go back and turn ourselves in. I will wait for you. I will always wait for you... OK?" "Don''t come here..." Ye Chenyu''s voice was colder. He just looked at Chen Yu and tightened his eyebrows. At the moment, both he and Chen Yu knew that Maggie was already nearby and could not tolerate any mistakes. However, the situation at this moment seems to be under control, and it seems to be out of the control of two people. Chen Yu didn''t stop. She looked at Ye Chenyu stubbornly, "I must take you back today!" She gritted her teeth. "Instead of letting them catch you back, there''s no chance. I have to take you back and turn yourself in -" Ye Chenyu seemed to be a little afraid of Chen''s fear of death. He stepped back step by step, holding the trigger with his fingers, and instinctively began to press Chen Yu didn''t see the movement under Ye Chenyu''s fingers, but forced her firmly. As if she had determined that ye Chenyu would not do anything to her But often, many things, even if not, have accidents. Ye Chenyu only felt that he was gently pushed down behind his back The tense mood exploded instantly without going through the brain. Under the action of nerve stimulation, ye Chenyu pulled the trigger. "Bang!" "Poof..." The bullet went out of the barrel and into the meat. The world seems to become quiet in an instant Ye Chenyu stared incredulously. Chen Yu hung his head slowly, looking at the blood hole in his chest and the blood pouring out After a pause of two seconds, Chen Yu slowly looked up again and looked at Ye Chenyu. At that moment, Chen''s expression was full of incredible sadness. And such sadness, gradually, turned into a farewell to Ye Chenyu''s love Ye Chenyu''s lips began to tremble. He didn''t put down his gun, but looked at Chen Chen with a white face. Chen Yu''s eyelids have become weak, his pupils have begun to be lax, and his sight is gradually blurred Chen Yu''s mind is running fast at the moment, as if he wants to deduce life in an instant. She looked at Ye Chenyu. At that moment, her eyes were right She actually saw love and a little love in his eyes. That''s nice I can still fantasize at this time "Dong" fell. Chen Yu almost fell straight to the ground. Her eyes looked at the blue sky, her fingers bent slightly, and finally... Motionless. There are noisy footsteps Ye Chenyu stood in place, looking at Chen Yu who fell to the ground, and whispered in a dull voice, "you forced me, you forced me... You forced me!" "Over there..." Mai Qi''er looked at the person who was chasing after him, and then looked at the crazy look of the gun Ye Chenyu was still holding. After a sharp cunning crossed his eyes, he pulled him, "go..." Ye Chenyu was dragged away by Mai Qier. The moment he turned around, he glanced at Chen Yu who fell to the ground Deep in my eyes, I was completely worried. After getting on the bus, ye Chenyu was completely lost, as if his soul had been taken away. Keep repeating in my mouth... You forced me! Maggie glanced at Ye Chenyu and motioned Danto to drive. Just as the car drove away, two people chased it out... But the car had already raised dust. ¡­¡­ Yuecheng. General Hospital of the military region. The sound of the roller of the emergency bed rubbed the floor, mixed with messy and rapid footsteps. The air... Is filled with a smell of death. "The patient was shot in the chest and needed immediate surgery..." "Type a blood, let the blood bank send blood..." "Prepare for surgery!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± "The patient''s blood pressure drops rapidly..." "The patient''s heart stops beating!" "Prepare for electric shock... Prepare!" "Ready!" "Ka!" "Again..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The operating room was filled with a tense and dignified atmosphere. Outside the operating room, the accompanying people and the local people who knew the action in Yuecheng all looked dignified. No one expected such an accident this time. Even if Chen Yu wears bulletproof clothing, but at close range, plus the position around the heart "Didn''t you say the gun was improved?" Lu Xiaowei picked up Yang Jinyu, "why is it so powerful?" Yang Jinyu didn''t speak, but was silent. Lu Xiaowei shook Yang Jinyu crazily, and his eyes were red. "Yang Zi, do you know that sister Yu can''t do anything..." He gritted his teeth. He was not only afraid of Chen Yu''s accident, but also afraid that ye Chenyu would be finished after the accident! Shoot and kill the police. Even if he has to, ye Chenyu doesn''t have to be tried at most, but his career will be over Qiao Rui closes his eyes. They are all in the temporary headquarters and have no idea of the situation of Yuecheng. Anxiety has become their only emotion at the moment. Chapter 1089 "Xiaowei, calm down..." Qiao Rui opened his eyes, pressed down his anxiety and said, "no one can expect such a situation..." He looked at Yang Jinyu. "Now the situation over there hasn''t come to an end. Can you calm down first?" Lu Xiaowei scarlet his eyes and let Yang Jinyu go, "sorry, I''m just in a hurry..." Yang Jinyu glanced at Lu Xiaowei and didn''t speak. He just sat silently on the small stool and continued to fiddle with his gun. But looking carefully, his actions lost the indifference of the past and became a little more fluffy and disorderly under impetuosity. Qiao Rui took a deep look at Yang Jinyu and turned around worried "A Rui," Lu Xiaowei shouted, "you, what are you doing? I''ll go with you..." He doesn''t want to wait for news here. If he doesn''t know anything, he thinks he can go crazy. Qiao Rui stopped, looked ahead, didn''t turn around, and said slowly, "Xiaowei, no matter whether sister Yu has something or not, and no matter what brother Yu will do in the future..." He paused, with a more worried overflow deep in his eyes, but forced himself to calm down. "Our task this time must be calm!" Qiao Rui gritted his teeth, "or... It''s too bad, isn''t it?" The words of "Ye Chenyu" style "frivolity" are a little sour. But Qiao Rui knows very well that he can''t mess now At least, let Lu Xiaowei calm down and let Yang Jinyu understand that self blame is useless! Make everything meaningful before they do it. ¡­¡­ Ye Chenyu was brought back to the villa by Maggie. Maggie looked at him and pushed, "here, get off..." Ye Chenyu gave her a dull look. When Miao angdeng opened the door, he turned mechanically and got out of the car. Maggie frowned slightly, with a touch of malice in her eyes. When getting off the bus, she winked with Miao angdeng, put her hands in her hot pants pocket, looked at Ye Chenyu''s back and followed slowly Ye Chenyu walked silently, unable to hide his loss under the heavy pace. Just as he stepped onto the steps of the villa, he suddenly stopped The lax eyes gradually gathered, and the breath became heavier and heavier... So heavy that the shoulders floated up and down with the breath. Maggie looked at Ye Chenyu''s back like this. With his subtle movements, the corners of her mouth sneered coldly. Suddenly Before Maggie''s cold sneer expression was put away, ye Chenyu suddenly turned around and looked at her fiercely with wild animal light in his eyes! "It''s you!" Ye Chenyu gasped, gritted his teeth and roared. Maggie frowned. "What is me?" "You pushed me behind my back, you!" Ye Chenyu seemed to think of something. His eyes were full of complex and evasive emotions. "If it weren''t for you, I wouldn''t shoot, and I wouldn''t kill Chen!" In the roar, there was a crazy collapse. Ye Chenyu is just like crazy. His whole face is not the previous evil ruffian, nor the excitement of gambling, but the sadness of fear on the brink of a cliff Maggie sneered, "can''t you shoot?" She said lightly, "Ye Chenyu, as Chen said, you have changed. You are not the ambitious Ye Chenyu before..." Mai Qier''s eyes fixed the cracked look on Ye Chenyu''s face and said clearly word by word: "otherwise, even if there is any situation, you can''t shoot!" "You shut up, you shut up -" "Especially," Maggie not only didn''t shut up, but also more stimulated Ye Chenyu, "the other party is still the one you love..." Words, slowly fall. It''s like breaking the last string of Ye Chenyu''s nerve. His eyes stared at the boss. It was like eating people Maggie smiled coldly, and was dissatisfied with Ye Chenyu''s feeling for Chen. However, his performance just gave her some reassuring information. "Ye Chenyu, she''s going to kill you..." Maggie continued regardless of Ye Chenyu''s collapse. "It''s right for you to kill her first." Ye Chenyu gasped, and the scarlet in his eyes became more and more intense He''s really scared rather than acting at the moment. Not afraid of his future or something But afraid of what happened to Chen! That subtle feeling filled his chest in an instant, and even made him really lose his calmness He wants to know her situation, not from superiors, subordinates and teammates, but He wants to know! Chen Yu fell down and looked at his eyes, which seemed to burn in his heart and mind, always fixed. That... Made him unable to contain his impulse. "Ye Chenyu, you can''t go back anyway..." continued Maggie, with a cool voice and disdain at the corners of her mouth. "Sooner or later, either she killed you or you killed her... Isn''t it?" Ye Chenyu shook his head slowly and numbly, and stared at Maggie with anger in his eyes. "Do you know what''s in your backpack?" Maggie glanced at Ye Chenyu''s backpack. "That''s poison!" Ye Chenyu''s face changed again. Although he thought about it at that time, he was unwilling to admit it. Chen Yu''s question, he is more reluctant to answer "You embezzle, embezzle and pay..." Maggie smiled. "Now you carry drugs..." she paused, and her deep eye socket became deeper. "Even if you don''t kill her, you''re finished!" "This is your trap, you hurt me..." Ye Chenyu roared. Maggie sneered, "corruption, misappropriation of contributions to gambling... That''s your choice." In a word, ye Chenyu completely collapsed. At the moment, like a man who has no responsibility, he wants to blame others for his mistakes "Ah --" Ye Chenyu roared and ran towards Maggie That posture, there is definitely a punch to kill her rhythm. "Oh" a dull hum came. Ye Chenyu only felt a pain in the back of his neck. His eyes suddenly darkened "Miss!" Danto held Ye Chenyu who had fainted and looked at Maggie. Maggie smiled enchanting, "put him in bed..." "Yes!" Danto answered, and some rudely put Ye Chenyu into the villa. Time, little by little It''s dark in the twinkling of an eye, and then late at night! In country m, the depressed life has long made people forget the difference between day and night. Here, it is full of everyone''s excitement about the desire under fantasy, and then... Die under erosion. But even so, under the control and guidance of some people, even if they know the outcome, those people flock to it one by one If you have interests, you will naturally have crazy desires. Always, the most fundamental interpretation of sin is... Interest! Ye Chenyu was still sleeping. Danto was not light at that moment. The time of country m has slipped past midnight, and the villa is quiet and treacherous. Only occasionally, Maggie turns the pages Maggie has always believed that no matter what "occupation", there must be cultural heritage. Otherwise, many times, problems that can be solved will become intractable and controlled by others There was a quick but steady sound of footsteps. Maggie put down her book and looked at the bedroom door. "Miss..." Miao angdeng shouted, and then strode to Maggie''s side, "the news from Yuecheng just came, the woman''s rescue was invalid, and she died an hour ago!" His words fell, and ye Chenyu woke up in time Chapter 1090 "Teng" for a moment, ye Chenyu suddenly sat up. He was almost awake in an instant, his eyes staring like a copper bell "What are you talking about?" Ye Chenyu''s voice was tense, "who did you say is dead?" Miao angdeng looked at Ye Chenyu indifferently, his eyes crossed coldly and slowly opened his mouth, and said clearly word by word: "Chen, the woman you shot..." He smiled coldly at the corners of his mouth, as if he saw that ye Chenyu''s face had changed at the moment. He continued: "you killed the police of your country... The position of the heart... Bang!" A simulated sound of "bang" made Ye Chenyu dull He opened his mouth slightly and moved back and forth to say something... Until finally, it was like a landslide in his heart and gradually drooped his shoulders. Ye Chenyu hung his eyes and asked feebly, "really... Dead?" There was a touch of hope in his breath. "Dead," Maggie raised her eyebrow. "You know very well... That shot, you want to live, unless it''s a miracle." Ye Chenyu tilted his head and looked at Maggie His eyes changed complex. After a while, he said powerlessly, "I want to be alone. Please go out!" After that, he didn''t care about Maggie and Miao angdeng. He lay down again and closed his eyes. There seems to be a feeling of self abandonment. Maggie didn''t stay either. She got up and looked down at Ye Chenyu. She smiled and said, "you have a good rest. See you tomorrow!" While the voice fell, Maggie''s smile became deeper and deeper She turned and walked out. Miao angdeng also looked at Ye Chenyu and followed Maggie out. Just as a click came from the door, ye Chenyu slowly opened his eyes. The complex emotions on his face didn''t converge. He didn''t know whether there was a microporous camera in the room At the same time, ye Chenyu closed his eyes again in pain. The center of the eyebrow has been tightly wrinkled into a word "Chuan". "Miss..." Miao angdeng looked back at the closed door of the bedroom. "Can he be sure?" Maggie kept walking to the living room, "if ye Chenyu was really undercover, the gun would never be fired in Chen Chen''s heart." Miao angdeng always felt that something was wrong, but Maggie''s words were true. If there was an element of acting between that day and the male policeman Well, with this policewoman, absolutely not. What''s more, I''m still a woman I''ve loved! "By the way, the general asked someone to take a message at that time..." Miao angdeng said. "A group of children will be sent to the base at the end of the month, so you can go back and pick it out." "Yes." Maggie answered, and the man had poured a glass of wine. She leaned slightly lazy and enchanting on the bar, turned back and looked in the direction of the bedroom, slowly raised a glass and drank The liquid slipped slowly into her throat, filled with feelings that excited her. After solving the policewoman, ye Chenyu has no way out... It can only be her! Time passes day by day. Under the "meticulous" care of Maggie, ye Chenyu became more and more addicted to gambling. It seems that only such stimulation can make him forget to kill Chen Yu himself. As the gambling became more and more fierce, ye Chenyu gradually became crazy Things that could have been tangled up seemed to become indifferent. Gradually spread in Yangon city Recently, there are many men around Maggie, who take them everywhere. They even consult him about many things and rely on him very much. And this man is also very powerful. He can do anything except indulge in gambling, lose more and win less. Ever since Maggie had water, he has needed everything for him. This man is sharp and cruel, but in just ten days, people have to look at him differently. Outside, give him the nickname ''ghost eye''! Just because the person he stares at is like a pair of eyes that have been in the dark in the night, which makes you feel like a lump in your throat These ten days. In Yangon City, in addition to a cruel role around Maggie, another thing happened. The news of Chen''s death returned to the Chen family in Los Angeles, and Chen Qishan became white almost overnight. Xie Zhenru cried and fainted several times. Chen Feng suspended school and temporarily had to prop up the Chen group, which was somewhat turbulent because of Chen Qishan''s fall. "It''s nonsense!" The voice of violent discontent exploded in the ward and pointed angrily. Chen Yu was half lying quietly on the hospital bed. He looked at Xie Qifeng with a cold face and didn''t speak. "Chen Chen, I know you work hard, but you don''t fight like this..." Xie Qifeng said fiercely, "you never thought that in case, not only you are finished, but also ye Chenyu will be finished!" Chen Yu is still silent, because she is used to being arrogant and indifferent. "You are so crazy..." Xie Qifeng put one hand on his waist and one hand on his forehead. In that way, he collapsed and was helpless. "I can understand Ye Chenyu''s temperament more or less," Xie Qifeng put down his hand, "but what about you? When did you have such a gambler''s mentality? Ah?!" Chen Yu has a headache and wants to go back She is still a patient. Please don''t criticize or make a noise to the patient. But when the words came to my mouth, I still endured them. Because she found that this was not what she should say, but rather the words of Ye Chenyu. "You two are like this... When the operation is over, I will tell your director." Xie Qifeng may have been too angry to contain the burst of emotion in his body. "I believe him..." Just when Xie Qifeng saw that Chen Yu was silent and "invulnerable", he was so angry that he was about to get angry, Chen Yu''s voice came softly. Chen Yu had a firm eye for Xie Qifeng, "I believe he can do it." "Blind!" Xie Qifeng clenched his teeth and snorted coldly. Chen Yu pulled the corners of his mouth and smiled with some interference. "Maybe..." Chen Shu breathed a sigh of relief. "In fact, I don''t know why I thought so at that time." Xie Qifeng looked at Chen Yu coldly and sat down in a chair. "When he grabbed my gun and put it on his chest, I understood his meaning at that moment..." Chen said silently, and the picture echoed in his mind. "That position, I know it''s dangerous..." Chen Yu tilted his head and looked out of the window at the sun. "As long as there is a slight deviation, I will die and he will die." Xie Qifeng sighed deeply. Although she saw that Chen was all right, she was still nervous when she said it. "Especially in that case, there are so many uncertain and unstable factors..." Chen Yu''s voice gradually became quiet and distant. "But I just believe him, even without any hesitation, hesitation or fear..." Chapter 1091 Xie Qifeng looked at Chen Yu. At this moment, he thought Chen Yu had changed It''s not the overlord flower like that machine, but a woman who will gradually be influenced by emotions. A woman, who unconditionally trusts a man, has only emotional dependence. "He and I know very well," Chen Hui looked back at Xie Qifeng. "If we want to make Maggie believe, we must take risks." In fact, everyone knows this. But, with the safety of life to play, there is no way to give orders. This is also the difference between good people and bad people "Nothing can win Maggie''s trust more than he has no way back." Chen Chen''s voice was calm and almost without emotion, as if he were talking about the most common thing. "In addition, I was the one who was shot and killed by him, which will completely make Maggie choose to believe him subconsciously." Xie Qifeng sighed, "I understand what you and ye Chenyu think, but..." "No, just!" Chen Yu pulled some dry lips and smiled, "Ye Chenyu''s shooting method really told Yang Zi, amazing... And I''m here to talk to you unharmed." Xie Qifeng lowered his eyes and smiled. Then he looked up at Chen and said, "I don''t know what to be angry with when you say so!" Chen Yu pulled the corners of his mouth again, and a touch of worry crossed his eyes. "I''m not worried about ye Chenyu facing Maggie, but I''m worried about facing..." Chen Shuo paused, and the sadness and anger under the pain gradually overflowed from the bottom of his eyes. "Matt can escape so many times and make a comeback. He will never be an emotional person." Xie Qifeng knows this very well. Getting close to Mai Qier is just more convenient to enter the wind puppet group, but to dispel Mai De''s doubts, it depends on luck and ye Chenyu''s response Thinking, Chen Yu and Xie Qifeng were silent. Suddenly, the ward was filled with dignity. "The operation is over," Xie Qifeng said coldly, "you and ye Chenyu write a review report." Chen Yu looked at Xie Qifeng, snorted and said angrily, "just write!" "You..." Xie Qifeng gritted his teeth and pointed to Chen Yu. She was so angry that she lost her temper. "I found out. Learn from who with whom." Chen Wei weekend. "You''re just like Ye Chenyu now!" Xie Qifeng said discontentedly. Chen Yu frowned slightly and wanted to refute, but the words came to his mouth and swallowed back Yangon city. After dinner, people have become the topic of "ghost eye" Ye Chenyu. Naturally, it is inseparable from his "master" Maggie. Compared with the unpredictable situation in Yangon, Los Angeles is full of sadness and seems to have another warmth. Since Chen Qishan and Xie Zhenru knew that their daughter had an accident, they stayed at home. The outside world speculated about unknown things one after another. Some people said that there were problems within Chen''s group, and some people broke the hatchet and lost public funds. Some people also said that Chen Qishan''s decision-making mistake caused dissatisfaction among shareholders and wanted to dismiss him Therefore, Chen Feng was temporarily ordered. The Emperor Group''s sudden participation in the "operation" of Chen''s group has deepened such speculation. Even, some experts say Does emperor group have a mind to touch Chen group?! No matter how the outside world speculates, those who have a heart naturally understand and know what happened. "When was the emperor interested in Chen''s group?" Zhao Qianyu took the lunch box to Xiao Jing''s office and muttered at the news on his mobile phone. However, she knew about Chen Yu and ye Chenyu, and roughly guessed why. "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." Zhao Qianyu pushed the door in and said, "President Xiao, there''s a lion''s head you like to eat in the restaurant today... Eh, Chen Shao and Mrs. Shao are also coming?" Jian Mo just smiled at Zhao Qianyu''s change of name to "Chen Shao" and "Shao madam". Before Xiao Jing was finished, he began to treat himself as his family?! "Did Chen Shao have dinner with Mrs. Shao?" Zhao Qianyu put the lunch box in front of Xiao Jing and asked. "Yes..." Jane Mo replied. Xiao Jing looked at Zhao Qianyu and Jian Mo coldly. You came and talked with me. It felt like they were very familiar. Unbearable coldness pulled down the corners of his mouth, and Xiao Jing opened the food box Suddenly, the taste and aroma of the food overflowed. The chefs of emperor restaurant are top-notch. After all, Gu Beichen used to eat in the company. "Oh!" Jane Mo smelled the smell and threw up without holding back her mouth Just as Xiao Jinggang was about to stop his chopsticks, he looked at Jian Mo and hurried out Gu Beichen''s face sank. After glancing coldly at Xiao Jing, he also got up and followed him out. "It''s my fault again!" Xiao Jing looked innocent. "In order to let you accompany your wife, I tried my best to live and die in the Emperor... It''s easy for me to eat today''s first meal until now!" "Not easy..." "Yes!" "Chen Shao, this wife slave is perfect!" Zhao Qianyu said solemnly. "Right..." Xiao Jingshun took Zhao Qianyu''s words. When he reacted, he looked at Zhao Qianyu and saw her smile of "cheap" on her face. "Nothing, you can go out!" "..." Zhao Qianyu curled his mouth, hummed in his dissatisfied nose, turned around and muttered in a low voice, "obviously, he is a teaser and has to pretend indifference in front of me, hum!" Her voice is not big or small, but Xiao Jing can definitely hear it Xiao Jing''s face was covered with haze. Looking at Zhao Qianyu''s back, his eyes were about to burst out fire. Originally I was hungry, but I was vomited by Jane morna. With Zhao Qianyu''s words, I was suddenly full! Jane foam was going crazy with retching. She found that the baby was particularly troubled. Before, Xiao Yan occasionally vomited, but he was not so delicate Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo painfully and wanted to help, but there was no way. "Take a break first?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo shook her head and half lay on the lazy sofa in front of his office window. Endure to endure, one face is tangled to see toward Gu Beichen, "suddenly want to eat pomegranate......" Looking at her, Gu Beichen raised his thin lips and said, "I''ll have someone send it over." Then he kissed Jane Mo on the forehead and got up to call the restaurant. The emperor will prepare afternoon tea for employees. Naturally, fruit is available. But pomegranate is too troublesome. Restaurants generally don''t provide it. But the president spoke and the president''s wife wanted to eat... The restaurant didn''t dare to neglect and hurried to buy it. When she bought it back, Jane Mo was already confused and took a nap again. Gu Beichen gently covered her with a thin blanket, looked at the big pomegranate sent over, walked over and peeled it for Jane mo When Jian Mo woke up, Gu Beichen had stripped a full plate. The pomegranate is crystal clear and attractive. Gu Beichen handed a spoon to Jian Mo, "it''s fun to eat like this." Jane Mo took it, but her face was a little tangled. "What''s the matter, huh?" Jane moo smiled at the corners of her mouth and said with some guilt at the bottom of her eyes, "well... If I said that I don''t want to eat pomegranates now, would you think I''m deliberately tossing you?" "No..." Gu Beichen listened and felt a deep tenderness in his eyes. "Dr. Ge told me that pregnant women are sometimes unpredictable." Jane mo ''puff'' laughed, "husband, you say... If you do this, will I overdraw all my happiness?" "A lot of happiness, how can overdraft?" Gu Beichen ran over Jian Mo and put his big palm gently on her lower abdomen, "double treat you, because you are not just you now..." Chapter 1092 The lingering love words can''t be finished, but no matter how much they say, Jane Mo feels very useful. "Then I want fried rice noodles now..." Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen with a grin, innocently stirring up her eyes. She looked so charming and cheeky. Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a smile, got up and handed her his hand. "Go out to eat?" While Jane Mo asked, she put her hand in Gu Beichen''s palm and was taken up with the trend. "Buy it back, no matter how fast it is, there''s some lumps. Go and eat it..." Gu Beichen took Jian Mo out. Jane Mo frowned and looked at the things on the desk. "But you still have a job." "There is Xiao Jing." Gu Beichen answered naturally. Jian Mo immediately chuckled, "ah Chen, you can really bully Xiao Jing." "Anyway, he said that I had cheated him. I''ll carry the reputation of more and less pits..." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, "I don''t like losing." Paused, "well, I want to take advantage of everything except you and the children." The smile on the corner of Jian Mo''s mouth became bigger. She not only didn''t think Gu Beichen had such a problem, but also felt a little cute. "Besides, in order to keep him from being tired, I equipped him with a new and old secretary. It''s hard to find a good boss like me." After Gu Beichen pressed the down button of the elevator, he smiled at Jian mo. Jian Mo smiled completely and looked sympathetically at the direction of Xiao Jing''s office As if, I could feel his back cool. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo had just arrived at the underground parking lot when his mobile phone vibrated. He took it out and looked at the call. He picked it up and put it in his ear. "The play of Chen Yu and Chen Yu should be able to make up for the fact that their identity was exposed..." Wang Qiang''s voice was a little complicated. "Chen''s'' death '', really don''t you tell Chen Qishan secretly?" "Don''t say." Gu Beichen''s voice was calm. "Since the play is going to be done, it''s going to be done enough..." "Yes." Wang Qiang nodded with a deep sigh, "but I''m still worried that Chenyu can''t pass the mede pass." "I''ve arranged someone over there..." Gu Beichen opened the door to Jane Mo and motioned her to get on the bus first. "Chenyu has been invisible and dark for so many years, and he''s not playing. He should be able to weigh what to do." "I don''t believe Chenyu, I''m worried!" Wang Qiang stared and expressed dissatisfaction. Gu Beichen had no expression on his cold face, but narrowed his eagle eyes gently, "and your worry is useless." Wang Qiang was choked by Gu Beichen and grinned secretly "I have something else to do. Hang up first." "OK," Wang Qiang said hurriedly, "if there''s any new news, I''ll call president Gu again." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, hung up the phone and got on the bus. The roar of the underground parking lot is excellent and steady meanwhile. With one foot on the chair, ye Chenyu, who was eating, looked coldly at the opposite Maggie. Maggie is talking to the people on the phone in the language of country M. Ye Chenyu can guess what she said by listening and guessing more or less these days, but it''s only superficial. Take back your sight and ye Chenyu continues to eat. He is the man that Maggie wants, from his former lover being killed by himself, to becoming more and more addicted to gambling, and then to complete self degradation But ten days! Ten days is very short. It''s the blink of an eye. But for ye Chenyu, he knows very well what he needs to pay while pretending and finding out Mai Qier''s network in Yangon city. Maggie hung up the phone and looked at the lazy Ye Chenyu opposite. "Are you interested in doing something else with me?" "Not interested..." Ye Chenyu said indifferently, took one side of the curry rice and ate it, frowned, and threw the plate back to the table with some dissatisfaction. Maggie looked at his movements and looked sideways at the servant, "go and get a bowl of soup noodles for Chenyu." "No," said Ye Chenyu indifferently, "I''m full." Maggie didn''t mind Ye Chenyu''s attitude at all. She just smiled and said, "OK, let''s prepare some noodles for tea in the afternoon." "Yes." Ye Chenyu answered indifferently. "What I just told you..." "No, I''m not interested!" Ye Chenyu is a little agitated. Maggie was silent in the depths of her eyes. She doesn''t matter, but Danto and Miao angdeng have looked at Ye Chenyu with dissatisfaction. Ye Chenyu didn''t even look at them. Relying on the "kindness" of Maggie to him, he can be said to be arrogant now. "I won''t leave until tomorrow," said Maggie with a smile. "We''ll talk about it in the evening." "Yes." Ye Chenyu answered lazily, then got up, "I''ll go to Baile gate..." "OK." Maggie said, "I''ll pick you up at tea?" "Suit yourself..." Ye Chenyu casually stuffed some money from the drawer into his backpack and walked out with lazy steps. "Miss, you just let him do it?" Danto gritted his teeth. Mai Qi''er restrained his smiling face to Ye Chenyu and said with a slight wink: "if you have his ability in addition to fighting, I''m up to you!" In a word, Danto''s mouth moved back and forth, but he could only endure it in the end. ¡­¡­ Ye Chenyu rode a motorcycle and went to Bailemen. Different from the first time he came here, now he is a man with head and face "Brother ghost eye, come and pull?" The people in the casino greeted Ye Chenyu, Ye Chenyu looked around and finally sat down on the gambling table. Gambled a few games, losing and winning. "Brother ghost eye, there''s a big market in the evening. Bet on the size... Are you interested?" Ye Chenyu smoked a cigarette and knocked it on the table several times. After tightening the cut tobacco, he lit it in his mouth. "What is the gambling money?" "Another 100 kilos..." "Oh?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows and said with a little interest, "what time?" He blew out the smoke, and some ruffians spit out three chain smoke rings. The fingers holding the smoke moved slightly, and the smoke was overturned. "Ten o''clock!" Ye Chenyu said softly, "OK, leave me a place." ¡°OK£¡¡± Ye Chenyu continued to take the cigarette and gently bit it with his teeth. While gambling, the cigarette was also bitten and moved up and down by him Xie Qifeng looked at the video from the inside, and his eyes gradually became deep. "Team Xie, it seems to be the Virginia code..." a technician said. Xie Qifeng looked deeper and deeper, "crack." "Yes!" The technician answered quickly. Xie Qifeng looked at Ye Chenyu''s face as a gambler and looked at this man with more and more admiration. Many people are undercover, but none of them has done what ye Chenyu did, turning undercover into a "course" to enrich themselves. Virginia code Now, most of them use the Morse code. He even uses such a popular one. I''m not afraid they didn''t expect it. "Team Xie, it''s cracked..." the technician got up and said nervously after half an hour. "The content is... Go to the wind puppet group tomorrow!" Chapter 1093 Xie Qifeng''s sight was suddenly cold, and asked definitely, "are you sure?" "OK." The technician nodded and paused. "I''m afraid Ye Chenyu has been trusted by Maggie." "It''s really a character..." Xie Qifeng smiled at the corners of his mouth, and his eyes were full of appreciation. Although it''s too desperate to shoot Chen Yu, it''s really the quickest way to let Maggie not guard against him. Coupled with Ye Chenyu''s own ability, if they didn''t know the inside story, they would think that ye Chenyu was a traitor of the police force "Inform everyone and be ready to act!" Xie Qifeng said, "let the insider observe Ye Chenyu''s actions, and you can crack them at any time." "Yes!" Xie Qifeng''s eyes became sharp, and when his temples moved gently, all those who fell were firm and jealous of evil. ¡­¡­ Maggie personally picked up Ye Chenyu at Bailemen during afternoon tea. He was obviously unlucky today. He lost almost all the money he brought, and the whole person was very upset. "I just heard from the people in the field that you are going to take part in the gambling game in the evening?" Asked Maggie. Ye Chenyu looked at her coldly, "what''s the problem?" Maggie smiled. "The last bet is poison. Why do you have to touch poison after you fall into gambling?" "I still want to be stained with yellow..." Ye Chenyu glanced at Mai Qi''er and looked at her face instantly. "Don''t you think it can be better controlled only if these three kinds are complete?" "Squeak -" The harsh brake sound came, and the car stopped 100 meters from the door of the villa. Mai Qier tightly held the steering wheel and looked at the front with fierce eyes. After enduring it, she looked at Ye Chenyu sharply and said word by word: "Ye Chenyu, it''s up to you to bet!" Ye Chenyu sneered. "Poison," said Maggie''s voice more and more heavily, "I can make you have fun..." Ye Chenyu took out his cigarette and lay back on the seat lazily and casually, with his long legs directly on the workbench. The sound of the steel lighter ''Bell'' crossed, and the smoke was lit. From beginning to end, the anger towards Maggie was completely ignored. "Ye Chenyu, I warn you, if you dare to get yellow, I''ll kill you!" Maggie was furious. Ye Chenyu glanced at her lazily and sneered, "Maggie, who are you?" Light Yi''s voice can''t hear too much emotion, but it''s more lazy. Ye Chenyu put his hand on the window, flicked his fingers, and the ash flew away with the light wind. "Do you really think it''s from Yangon city that you''re my master?" "I''m your woman!" Maggie blurted out almost without using her brain. Ye Chenyu tilted his head to look at her. The bottom of his eyes first flashed consternation, and then turned into a sneer and restrained his eyes. As if, for Maggie''s words, there was some silence under sneer. The position of Maggie''s heart was pounding, and she didn''t regret the impulse she just said. She had never felt like this before. For her, men are often obedient dogs, or for her enjoyment Ye Chenyu is different. He is like a poppy. The closer people get to him, the more they will be confused by him and become addicted. "Maggie, don''t tell me you like me..." Ye Chenyu smoked. "It will make me feel like a joke." Maggie restrained her emotion and looked at Ye Chenyu frivolously. "Why, I''m a woman. I like a man. There''s a problem?" "No..." Ye Chenyu smiled and said, "do you know me? Do I know you? You can play, but if you want to rise to what you like, it''s better not to be too casual." "Do you and Chen know each other?" Maggie provoked, "if she knows you, she won''t know you''re crazy about gambling and will take you back." "So," said Ye Chenyu, lowering his legs and suddenly approaching Maggie, with a charming and low voice, "she... Is dead!" The breath of yin and cold filled the air instantly, and the hot summer couldn''t resist the breath overflowing from ye Chenyu. Maggie''s heart ''cluttered'', but in a flash, that feeling disappeared again "I can understand you, and you can understand me..." Maggie''s fingers gently crossed Ye Chenyu''s cheek and then his chest Then slowly, I came to Ye Chenyu''s strong belly through a cotton T-shirt. Just when she felt that ye Chenyu''s nerve was a little tight, her fingers continued to move down "Whether it''s a person or your heart, I have to decide..." Maggie tightly coagulated Ye Chenyu''s eyes and continued to move her fingers down. Just as she was about to touch the sensitive area, she suddenly heard a cry of "ah". Ye Chenyu shackled Maggie''s wrist suddenly turned up at the last moment. Maggie had only one idea about his behavior. He has feelings for her. And it''s instantaneous "Ye Chenyu, stay with me. I''ll give you the right that men want!" Maggie''s heart was beating uncontrollably, "as long as you want, I can give you..." If you mean something, it''s ambiguous. Ye Chenyu looked at Maggie with deep eyes and smiled at the corners of his mouth, "I really can''t see. What rights can you give me?" After a pause, he looked deeply and said, "if I want, you can give it to me? Hehe, women talk big about their fucking love." Ye Chenyu shook off Maggie''s hand and sat down again. "Here in Yangon, it''s just a drop in my bucket..." Maggie raised her eyebrows with pride in her eyes. "Don''t you want to accompany me tomorrow? I''ll show you what I can really give you." Ye Chenyu popped the cigarette out of the window at will, didn''t speak, but he obviously didn''t believe Maggie. Maggie was a little angry. "Ye Chenyu, since you want to understand, you don''t understand. Can you understand?" "Know you?" Ye Chenyu looked coldly at Maggie. "Yes!" Maggie suddenly leaned over and squeezed Ye Chenyu''s chest with full softness and elasticity, "when you know me, you will definitely fall in love with me..." Her breath spread on Ye Chenyu''s cheek with her words, "just like men, they can never resist power!" Soft fragrance in my arms, but also full of flirtation under ambiguity Ye Chenyu just wanted to say: the baby''s heart is bitter! If he sacrifices "color" like this, will he have some problems because of what he endured?! Ye Chenyu thought in his mind, and looked at Mai Qi''er with a complicated look. Maggie looked at him like this and felt that he would capture the man sooner or later. "I''ll go to the gambling game with you in the evening..." Maggie got up and didn''t intend to continue torturing Ye Chenyu. She doesn''t want him to treat her only physically. She wants him Just want her! Chapter 1094 In the quiet western restaurant, there are soft piano music floating gently in the air. While making people comfortable, they slowly put down their emotions. Near the window sat a man. The posture is noble, but it feels a little lazy Such extreme two states not only do not give people the feeling of something wrong, but feel that the combination is just right and comfortable. Can be so comfortable, showing an unspeakable sense of alienation. Men are handsome, a kind of handsome combination of tenderness and fortitude. He just sat there and looked out slightly... The coffee in front of him had cooled gradually, as if everything was still. "The picture is so beautiful that I don''t feel tired of watching it all day..." there are peach blossoms in the waitress''s eyes. Her words fell, and many people immediately echoed them. "I don''t know what he looks like when he smiles," another waitress fantasized. "It''s so handsome that people can''t open their eyes. If you smile again, I''m afraid the whole world will be intoxicated..." "But he always looks like he''s lost in thought." "I don''t know what I''m thinking, which can make him so focused..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± While the waitress was chatting secretly, the man''s cell phone rang. He took it out and looked at it. After the call, he raised a shallow smile at the corners of his mouth, pressed the connect button and put it in his ear "Stone!" On the other side of the mobile phone, there was a soft waxy voice of star. Shi Shaoqin smiled a little more. "What''s the matter, huh?" "Bully me, Carney!" Star snorted. On one side, Carney listened and immediately choked himself with an old mouthful of blood. "Ancestor, don''t complain, will you?" Carney whispered, "obviously you don''t eat..." Star''s small pink mouth, ignoring Carney''s angry appearance, said in a muffled voice, "stone, star misses you." A soft word, Shiqin. Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful face spread a smile. At the right time, the setting sun scattered on him through the window... Plating a thin halo around him. Beautiful people... Yearn! "Did stone miss star?" Asked star. "Think!" Shi Shaoqin said with a smile. Star immediately grinned and kissed Shi Shaoqin towards his mobile phone. "Why not eat well?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice came softly, "if you don''t eat, you can''t!" Star''s black and bright eyes looked at Carney with dissatisfaction and disgust, and then hummed softly, "star thinks of stones and... He can''t eat any more..." If star just said "think" to soften Shi Shaoqin''s heart, it must be directly melted at this moment. Shi Shaoqin knew that the little guy was afraid of his accusation, but even so, he couldn''t help being moved by the little guy. That kind of dependence makes him feel at ease! Carney looked at star and shook his head with a sigh. "Jue Shao, you say... Is this a personal genius?" Shi Jue Chi smiled mildly and looked at star and Shi Shaoqin chatting. She only felt gentle for years. "When will the stone come back..." when star asked this question, he was obviously a little angry. "The time cannot be determined for the time being." Shi Shaoqin didn''t give star an ambiguous answer. He didn''t want star to count the time. "When it''s confirmed, stone will call you, huh?" Star tooted his mouth and answered stiffly. But when I saw Qingqing coming with a cup of strange juice, the little guy''s eyes lit up, "stone, bye!" When the "doodle doodle" hang up sound came, Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes. He was helpless and happy. He lowered his hand and put down his mobile phone. Turn your head and look out of the window In due time, a family of three walked across the street. The father and mother held the child''s hand and didn''t know what to say. The whole family was very happy. Shi Shaoqin suddenly felt a little empty. Star will leave him sooner or later?! Even if you rely on it again The narrow eyes narrowed slightly, slightly covering the helplessness in the depths of the eyes. He didn''t want to hide star all his life, just... When he''s older, well, he''ll be older! Shi Shaoqin''s sight has been moving with the three members of the family It was not until he disappeared into the depths of his eyes that he restrained his eyes and drew back his sight. At the right time, I saw a man with a beard and looking about 50 years old looking at Shi Shaoqin in surprise. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, obviously dissatisfied. The man hurried over, "Qin Shao?!" He was a little embarrassed. "I heard you came here. I didn''t expect to meet you." "Long time no see." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was indifferent and didn''t have any tone. He just motioned slightly, "it''s rare to meet Mr. Mai. Let''s have dinner together!" "OK, ok..." madder answered quickly, sat down opposite and called the waiter. After ordering the meal, Maide looked at Shi Shaoqin and asked, "did Qin Shaoqin come to order the goods in the second half of the year?" "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered indifferently. "Qin Shao came in person and wanted to come to this year''s harvest. Most of them went to Mo palace again..." "What?" Shi Shaoqin raised his eyes slightly. "Mr. Mai thinks there''s a problem?" "No, no, no, how?!" Maide shook his head hurriedly. "In this regard, I have my own harvest, and self-sufficiency is enough." Shi Shaoqin did not answer. "I heard that Qin Shao came here and wondered if I could take a chance..." Maide didn''t go on halfway. He wanted to see Shi Shaoqin''s reaction. Unfortunately, Shi Shaoqin''s face remained calm. "I''ve studied something before," said madder with a little embarrassment. "I''ve basically achieved little results... Just want to see if Mogong is interested." "I heard something..." Shi Shaoqin said. Matt''s eyes lit up when he saw it. However, it soon disappeared. He said something about the characteristics of the new product. Seeing that Shi Shaoqin was still lack of interest, he felt a little beat in his heart. The wind puppet group is now making a comeback. If it can hook up with the Mo palace, the way in the future will not only be in Asia The market in Europe and America is very large, but if he wants to get involved, he must pass through the ink palace. "If Qin Shao doesn''t hurry to go..." Maide thought and said carefully, "do you have the honor to invite Qin Shao to the base?" "I have something else to do." Shi Shaoqin''s slender fingers gently twisted the red wine glass, and his voice was always a tone. Maide was a little lost, but still asked with a glimmer of hope, "I don''t know... When will Qin Shao have time?" Shi Shaoqin raised his eyes slightly and looked at Maide. Madder was suddenly nervous Shi Shaoqin looks gentle and handsome, but everyone knows that he is so cruel that many people can''t catch up with him. Shi Shaoqin looked at him like this. Even he was worried. "In two days," Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes, "I hope Mr. Mai''s things won''t disappoint me." Chapter 1095 "No, no..." Maide got Shi Shaoqin''s consent and finally put his heart down. This dinner also seemed to be very delicious. Maide didn''t dare to disturb Shi Shaoqin. After dinner, he found an excuse to leave Shi Shaoqin looked out of the window and looked at the rough figure of Maide. After getting into the car, he withdrew indifferently and got up. Back to the hotel. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window, looked at the neon flashing outside the window and called Gu Beichen. "How about ye Chenyu''s willpower?" Shi Shaoqin asked. Gu Beichen immediately frowned. As the ink pupil deepened, he asked coldly, "don''t fool around..." "Matt is not easy to cheat." Shi Shaoqin spoke coldly. Gu Beichen was silent. Shi Shaoqin didn''t urge either. He just held up his mobile phone and stood there coldly waiting "Shaoqin, you know very well that it''s not how willpower can resist." Gu Beichen''s voice was a little dignified. He probably guessed what Shi Shaoqin wanted to do. But Shi Shaoqin raised his eyes slightly, and slowly said, "it depends on whether he wants to complete the task or die!" Shi Shaoqin''s cold, carved face was gradually shrouded in haze. "I''ll let you pass, and you''ll give me this answer?" "I won''t come, he has only one choice..." Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "die!" "..." Gu Beichen narrowed his eagle eyes. Shi Shaoqin said indifferently, "I just got in touch with Maide. He''s not so fast on the surface..." he paused. "With a long time of patience, even if ye Chenyu can stand it, will ye Chenyu give so much time?" Gu Beichen had a headache. "I don''t know if Chenyu can hold on..." "It depends on his nature." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was indifferent. "I''m only responsible for keeping him alive in this mission." The words fell, and Shi Shaoqin hung up without waiting for Gu Beichen to speak. Gu Beichen strolled in the yard of the manor. The summer wind blows slowly and cool... But the position of the heart is like fire. He didn''t know whether Chenyu could make it, but Shaoqin said so. It seems... There is only one way. ¡­¡­ The next day, Yangon City, which had always had good weather, finally overcast. But it did not become cool, but sultry and impetuous. Ye Chenyu didn''t win the gamble last night. The 100 kilogram goods naturally have nothing to do with him. "Still lost?!" Maggie looked at Ye Chenyu and said with a smile, "today we passed by. If you want to do this, I''ll give you a chance." "Where are you going?" Ye Chenyu is somewhat dissatisfied that Maggie hasn''t said what to do until now. "Go..." "Miss!" Just as Maggie was talking, Miao angdeng suddenly gave a voice to remind him. Ye Chenyu glanced at Miao angdeng, glanced coldly and continued to eat. Maggie didn''t continue to say, but just raised her eyebrow and said, "anyway, you''ll know when it''s over." Ye Chenyu naturally won''t ask. He looks a little interested. Maggie''s relationship these days can be regarded as touching some of Ye Chenyu''s temperament. He will react only when a great desire is put in front of him After breakfast, the car is ready. "Put this on..." Danto threw Ye Chenyu a Headcover. "What?" Ye Chenyu said, turning left and right, and then sneered, "why, where to go... I still need to wear this thing?" "If you don''t wear it, don''t go." Danto said coldly. Ye Chenyu immediately changed his face and directly threw his headgear on Danto''s face. "First make sure that I''m not going... It''s Maggie who took me!" Then he glanced coldly at the angry Danto and turned to return to the villa. Maggie just came over and grabbed Ye Chenyu. "Let go!" "It''s the rule..." explained Maggie. "Everyone who goes there for the first time should do so." "I can choose not to go!" Ye Chenyu''s voice was indifferent. Maggie''s eyes filled with hope, "just because of me, bear it?" Ye Chenyu''s arm moved and wanted to get rid of Maggie, but in the end, it was in her eyes and gave up. Get in the car. The headgear that Maggie wore to Ye Chenyu in person is really intimate. The car has been driving for a long time and is bumpy. I don''t know whether Maggie is afraid of Ye Chenyu''s silent road recording or that he can''t see boredom. Along the way, she kept looking for topics to chat with him. But even so, ye Chenyu still remembers the way with two purposes. The speed is 60 to 80 miles. Although it is a mountain road, it is easy to walk at this speed But after walking for a while, ye Chenyu felt strange. It seems that a certain road has been walked two or three times Ye Chenyu didn''t know whether it was because the curve of the mountain road was the same or how, so he had to remember it silently first. It was a long time before the car stopped. As ye Chenyu got out of the car, he tore off his head cover. Fortunately, due to the bad weather and the lack of light in the mountains, his eyes didn''t need to adapt. "Here we are?" Ye Chenyu looked around. There was no trace of people everywhere. Maggie got out of the car. "I have to walk for a while. I can''t drive in." Ye Chenyu didn''t speak, and Maggie and others had gone to the mountains If this is the first time to come to this place, ye Chenyu found that even people with an excellent sense of direction can''t find the direction without a North compass. The weeds are the same everywhere, even the trees are the same. I don''t know whether it''s natural or man-made. It''s impossible to tell. After walking for about an hour, ye Chenyu vaguely saw such a large open space in front of him. Surrounded by high platforms made of wood and bamboo, you can vaguely see a large row of tents scattered on them. "Miss..." Those carrying various guns greeted Maggie one after another. A man came forward and said something to Maggie in the language of M country. He was obviously a little excited. Ye Chenyu didn''t understand. Naturally, he could only be hung. After finishing with the man, Maggie looked at Ye Chenyu and said, "you go to see dad with me first." Ye Chenyu frowned slightly. "Don''t worry, there''s me." Mai Qi''er walked forward with Ye Chenyu''s arm around. "However, if you want to get more power, you must first get the approval of your father." Paused, "you know, after all, you were a policeman before." On the way, Maggie talked with Ye Chenyu. His desire for rights and enjoyment is also more certain. They arrived at a relatively large tent, which was set up on a high wooden platform. "Dad..." From a distance, Maggie saw that madder came from another place, followed by a man. Mai de nodded and looked at Ye Chenyu after glancing at Mai Qi''er. Mai de and the man stood down and both looked at Ye Chenyu Ye Chenyu didn''t shy away and looked at Maide. "Dad," Maggie suddenly saw the picture in Matt''s hand, "how can you have the picture of Chenyu?!" Chapter 1096 Hearing this, ye Chenyu first looked at Maggie, then looked at madder and frowned slightly. Mai de ignored Mai Qi''er, but looked at Ye Chenyu with indifferent eyes. Gradually, his eyes became more and more far-reaching "Are you ye Chenyu?" Asked Med. Ye Chenyu said calmly, "yes!" Matt smiled, but people didn''t feel a trace of friendliness. "You''re not surprised that I have your picture?" "Why wonder?" Ye Chenyu''s voice is always indifferent, "after all, my previous identity is the opposite." "You are very calm when you arrive!" "I''m not calm, don''t you know?" Ye Chenyu asked rhetorically, with a touch of irony across his eyes. Matt narrowed his eyes gently and looked lingran. Suddenly Just when the atmosphere became a little tense, madder pulled out his gun The black barrel of the gun is opposite to Ye Chenyu, and there is a sense of awe. Ye Chenyu suddenly frowned and stared round. There was a flash of fear in his eyes, but he forced him to suppress it again in an instant. McDonnell looked like an abyss and saw all his changes. "Dad!" Maggie''s eyes widened and her voice was obviously worried, "what are you doing?" Maide didn''t speak, but looked at Ye Chenyu coldly and said, "do you know why I live now?" "Because I''d rather kill by mistake," Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth. "I can''t let go!" "Yes!" Med hooked his mouth. However, because of his beard, he couldn''t see his smile. "I don''t like hidden dangers, even if you''re not undercover..." while madder said coldly, he had opened the safety bolt on the gun. The sound of machinery breathes death. Ye Chenyu suddenly clenched his hand, and his breath was a little messy. He''s scared! This is the first thing Matt saw Secondly, ye Chenyu is pretending to be calm! "Dad, you can''t kill him!" Maggie came forward and put her finger on the trigger that Matt was going to press. "I don''t want you to kill him." "Let go..." madder''s voice was indisputable. "Don''t let go!" Maggie raised her eyebrows. "I brought Ye Chenyu here, and he''s the one I want... I know if he''s undercover! Or does my father don''t believe my eyes?" Madder frowned slightly. "Dad..." Maggie shouted again, then took the gun in McGrady''s hand and unloaded the insurance. Mai de coldly looked at Ye Chenyu, who was slightly relieved. He hummed coldly, "let someone take him to rest first." then he looked at Mai Qier, "come with me." Maggie nodded and walked to Ye Chenyu. "Well, you go to rest first. I''ll have someone prepare lunch. I''ll come and eat with you later." Ye Chenyu looked at Maggie coldly. In his eyes, there was obvious dissatisfaction after "a moment of life and death". Maggie felt a little uncomfortable. Looking at Ye Chenyu who left with iron fist, her heart seemed to be blocked by something. "Maggie..." madder shouted coldly. Maggie looked back and went into the biggest tent with madder. "Dad!" Maggie was a little dissatisfied. "What were you just going to do?" "He''s undercover!" Matt spoke coldly. "He''s not..." said Maggie calmly. "Although I want him very much, I won''t gamble with the fate of the group and our life and death." Mai de snorted coldly and threw the photos of Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu onto the table. "According to the news obtained by iron fist, there are these two people in the five person team sent by state Z to cooperate with Interpol this time." Maggie took the picture, saw that the woman was Chen Yu, and stared. It seems that I suddenly understood the words I heard them quarrel before, but I don''t quite understand what they mean. Ye Chenyu used to take advantage of this opportunity to escape Maggie has the idea of entering the Lord first. With the contact these days, she believes Ye Chenyu in her instinctive consciousness. "This woman is dead..." Maggie raised her eyes and looked at madder. "Dead?" Matt was a little surprised. Maggie nodded, "Ye Chenyu killed it." Matt frowned slightly, obviously confused. Mai Qier roughly explained the situation. In his words, he even magnified some things of Ye Chenyu to deepen Mai De''s trust in him And such amplification, even she doesn''t know, is subconscious. "Are you sure you''re dead?" Mai de Leng hum, "the people of country Z are the most cunning." "Miao angdeng went to confirm." "There are even many problems with Chen Qier''s family over there," said Chen Qier Madder listened to Maggie''s analysis and felt a little relaxed. However, he was born with many doubts and was not completely relieved. "Let him move around the tent these days," madder said. "According to what you said, he''s really a talent. If you can accept him, it''s a joke I gave to the police when I''m old." When Maggie saw that madder had softened down, she immediately nodded with bright eyes. ¡­¡­ After these days of cultivation, Chen Yu has been able to get out of bed. Listening to the sound of the border guard training outside, she went to the window After waking up, she was sent to the border guard. It''s the safest and most reliable place to keep secrets if you want the news that she''s dead not to be broken. The neat formation and energetic chants made Chen Chen''s mind outline Ye Chenyu''s appearance at the police academy. She read his file. Unlike her in the public security university, the police school is relatively hard, and most of them are also assigned to front-line posts. At that time, ye Chenyu was also very evil, but the photos of the spiritual police school uniform were in high spirits. He had a beard that day. How could his evil appearance have a little vitality? Chen Yu stood for a while and leaned against the window a little tired. He looked at the training people in front and gradually hooked up the corners of his mouth It seems that those who trained in fighting have become Ye Chenyu. "Report!" A voice came, interrupting Chen''s thoughts. "Come in..." Chen Yu got up. A guard opened the door and came in. He first saluted Chen Yu and handed her the folder in his hand. "Officer Chen, this is from the front." "Thank you!" The guard smiled and was somewhat shy in the face of a beautiful woman like Chen. Chen Yu opened it and sighed slightly after reading the content. "The chief asked me to ask you if there is any news you need to bring over?" Asked the guard. Chen Yu looked at the guard and nodded. "Then please write down that if you want to send it back, the head will arrange someone to pass it back..." Chen Yu nodded and turned to the side of the table to sit down. She looked at the content of the message again and finally wrote: the last action request to participate! Chapter 1097 For three days in a row, ye Chenyu was very calm. Of course, he can''t be restless In three days, ye Chenyu knew that this was not the hinterland of the wind puppet group at all. At most, it can only be used to confuse the outside world. Ye Chenyu lay on the hammock between the two trees, with a cigarette in his mouth. He looked idle and restless. Maggie came back this time to listen to the hidden meaning in her words these two days. She came back to do the experiment. The people who do the experiment are almost the children robbed or abducted in Chen''s mouth But where are these children locked up?! Ye Chenyu gently shook and let his body swing with the hammock The brain rotates rapidly, but there is only one final conclusion. Matt is very careful. If you want to get more useful information, you must get his trust. Just thinking, there was a faint roar Ye Chenyu pedaled on the tree trunk, stopped his shaking body, and turned his eyes to the sound. In a moment, the roar was getting louder and louder. Then, it rushed forward with wind and waves Just as ye Chenyu''s long legs crossed an arc and hurried out of the hammock, the wind and waves swept in and swayed in the wind. Ye Chenyu frowned and saw a helicopter slowly stop in the open space ahead. The propeller gradually stopped rotating. Ye Chenyu looked around. None of the tents were pulled up by the wind and waves because the helicopter came down. "It''s quite strong..." Ye Chenyu make complaints about it. In due time, the hatch of the helicopter was opened Matt took the lead, followed by an unusually handsome man in a suit and two people who looked to be his attendants. "Qin Shao, please..." Mai de changed his fierce and bloodthirsty that day and looked flattering. Soon, Maide took the three men to the largest tent. All the way, they were full of smiles. There was footsteps behind him. Ye Chenyu looked back and saw that it was Mai Qier. He asked curiously, "who is that man?" "Someone our world can''t afford." Maggie raised her eyebrows. "This man, how good he looks, his means are proportional to his ruthlessness... His blood is cold!" Ye Chenyu frowned slightly. After looking at Mai Qier, his eyes fell on Shi Shaoqin. Born into the instinct of the police, ye Chenyu wants to observe more when he sees bad guys. After Mai de and Shi Shaoqin entered the tent, ye Chenyu lay on the hammock again, "when will you go back?" "Don''t go back for a while..." Maggie leaned against the tree. Ye Chenyu looked at her coldly. "You brought me here to make me so boring every day?" He sat up again. "If I had known this, I might as well stay in Yangon." "Bear it first," said Maggie, raising her eyebrows. "These two days will make you see and excited..." paused. "I''m afraid you can''t do it at that time." Ye Chenyu''s eyes twinkled, "what is it?" He sneered, "it''s nothing more than poison. It''s mysterious." Maggie didn''t explain. Now people have chosen almost, so they''ll wait for the shipment later. It''s a big business this time. If these children are settled, the wind puppet group will set up the ink palace in the future. I''m afraid it won''t go smoothly?! "I''ll walk with you?" Maggie was excited and looked at Ye Chenyu with her eyebrows. "In such a big place, what are you going to do?" Ye Chenyu was not interested and wanted to lie down again. But before he lay down completely, he was pulled up by Maggie. "I''ll expand your scope today..." while Maggie said, she pulled Ye Chenyu out of the hammock. Ye Chenyu has found out the temperament of Maggie these days. The more you resist her, the more she will want to conquer you. In this regard, women sometimes have stronger desires than men Unfortunately, emotional consequences, no matter in any way, will only harm themselves. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. Gu Beichen''s eyes fell on mother ye, who was talking to Jian Mo, and the ink pupil became deeper and deeper. Then, from the depths, overflow a trace of complex emotions. Compared with her, as long as Chenyu can live, is it happy? Gu Beichen opened the door of the small villa and walked in the small garden. At the same time, there was a trace of dignity on his cold, carved face. Mo Shaochen came over and handed a glass of water to Gu Beichen. "Is there something wrong with Chenyu?" Gu Beichen drank and looked ahead. "Shaochen, what do you think is suitable for people like Chenyu if they leave a dangerous job?" Don''t frown, "Shaochen?" "I always feel that no job can suit him..." Gu Beichen looked at Mo Shaochen, "what do you think?" "His job is very dangerous, but I have to say that he is suitable." Mo Shaochen held the cup in both hands and turned it. "If I can, in fact, I want to be selfish and let him change his job." Gu Beichen sat lazily on the chair under the sunshade and tilted his legs at will. "Aunt doesn''t say, but we all know very well that every time Chenyu is not around, she''s afraid she can''t sleep well..." Mo Shaochen sighed heavily. "Apart from everything else, aunt is really not easy." Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but drank water again. After a while, Gu Beichen changed the topic and asked, "listen to Mo''er, did you accompany Xiao Yue to the hospital?" "Yes." Mo Shaochen nodded, "Xiao Yue wants children. I don''t want her to face the problem alone... Shouldn''t it be two people who face everything?" "Yes..." Gu Beichen smiled. "It''s always good to double happiness and halve pain." Mo Shaochen leaned over slightly with his arms on his knees. "I also like children, but I don''t want to force... It''s natural to have good, no, I don''t want to burden her." "Does Xiao Yue know you think so?" Jane Mo brought the fruit and sat down next to Gu Beichen. "I know," Mo Shaochen said helplessly, "but I''m afraid I''m comforting her." Jane Mo shrugged because she thought Xiao Yue would think so. Mo Shaochen thought of it on his mobile phone at the right time, looked at it and picked it up, "it''s done? I''ll pick you up..." He hung up and got up. "I''ll pick up Xiao Yue." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly. After Mo Shaochen left, Jian Mo first looked at the direction of the villa and asked, "is Chenyu in danger? Look at your dignified face after you answered Shi Shaoqin''s phone." Gu Beichen pulled Jian Mo''s shoulder into his arms and said in a quiet voice, "I just hope everything here can make Chenyu''s will firm..." Now, the whip is too long to reach. We can only take one step at a time. ¡­¡­ "Qin Shao..." after talking with Shi Shaoqin, Maide said hesitantly, "I like someone very much, but I''m not completely sure if he can stay and how to do it?" Shi Shaoqin looked at Maide. Mai de said with a smile: "Mo palace has always had its own way to control people... I don''t want to learn, but just want Qin Shao to help!" Chapter 1098 Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful handsome face had no emotion at all. His long and narrow eyes were light and indifferent. "Since it''s so uncertain, why don''t you kill it directly?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was gentle. "Isn''t Mr. Mai always doing this?" Maide twisted his thumb and middle finger, lowered his eyes and said with a smile, "people always have to be old. No matter how ambitious, don''t you have to find someone to take over in the end?" "I heard... Mr. Mai''s daughter is not a simple person." Matt raised his eyes. "Maggie is very capable, but wouldn''t it be better to have someone around?" "Also..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice didn''t change much from beginning to end. However, when he finally dropped his words, he narrowed his eyes slightly and crossed a sneer. Ye Chenyu was taken to the tent, and Maggie followed. "You go out first..." madder looked at Maggie. "I have something to ask him." Maggie was a little worried, but when she went to the base yesterday, her father told her that if ye Chenyu''s identity could be determined, he could accompany her out of the goods this time. Thinking of this, Maggie thought that McGrady was supposed to make a final confirmation, so she nodded without resistance. And ye Chenyu looked at each other. After giving him a reassuring look, Maggie turned and left the tent. Ye Chenyu stood where he was, first looked at Maide, and finally looked at Shi Shaoqin, who was somewhat out of tune with the atmosphere here. At the right time, madder motioned. Without waiting for ye Chenyu''s reaction, two young men came forward and restrained him one by one. Ye Chenyu immediately looked at Maide with a cold look, "Mr. Mai, what are you doing?" "I''m very careful..." Maide got up and went to Ye Chenyu. "You killed Chen Yu. Although I admire your courage, it''s not enough for me to believe you." Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth and wanted to say "I don''t need you to believe it", but he endured it in the end. Unlike Maggie, Matt doesn''t dare to face up directly. Ye Chenyu''s look and entanglement fell into Maide''s eyes. He smiled, "do you really want to stay?" "I don''t have a way back, do I?" Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth. Maide smiled, "I heard that Maggie said what you did these days. To be honest, I appreciate you..." "Appreciation doesn''t mean trust, does it?" Ye Chenyu sneered. Matt raised his eyebrows and nodded. "Indeed..." he said, the warmth on his face gradually converging and becoming indifferent. "So, you need to prove it to me." "How to prove it?" Ye Chenyu looks a little grumpy because of dissatisfaction. Madder motioned to the people on the side. Someone brought something Shi Shaoqin slowly raised his eyes, and his eyes fell on Ye Chenyu indifferently. From beginning to end, he didn''t see it, but he couldn''t help taking a new look at Ye Chenyu. From the strain in London to now If there were more such people in the police, how would they mix up? Ye Chenyu looked at a needle tube taken out by the man. After a sudden gathering of his eyes, he looked at Maide in horror, "what is this?" "You''ll know later..." While Matt smiled, he took two steps back. Ye Chenyu''s face became more and more frightened. He struggled to resist, but the man holding him kicked him directly. The nerves of his legs became numb, and he knelt down one by one! Ye Chenyu continued to struggle. The two men directly pressed him to the ground, making him completely unable to use his strength. The man with the needle looked at him coldly and squatted down. It seemed that ye Chenyu was not frightened enough. He deliberately squeezed out the air in the needle in front of him, and a few drops of medicine fell on his cheek. Ye Chenyu roared, turning a thousand times in his heart. He didn''t know whether the poison was in the needle, but he knew it would never feel good. "Well..." A dull sound of pain came, and the tip of the needle stuck into his big arm without skill, and then pushed the contents into his body at once. Pull out the needle tube The two men who had been holding Ye Chenyu''s body also coldly let go and retreated to the side together. The effect came quickly. But for a moment, ye Chenyu felt his sight blurred and everything in front of him became illusory. Even some fantasies appeared in my head. The body began to twitch uncontrollably because of discomfort. With the twitch, ye Chenyu felt more and more chaotic. "Er..." Ye Chenyu curled up in pain, followed by a puff, and his pupils began to relax. The drug effect is playing faster and faster, and ye Chenyu''s whole expression is painful and speechless. The throat is constantly overflowing, and the sound made by unspeakable pain is like a trapped and injured beast. Shi Shaoqin leaned back on the chair with one arm, and his narrow eyes fell on Ye Chenyu indifferently, and his vision gradually became deep. The two people behind him were silent, but if you pay attention, you will find that there is a tension in their eyes. "Ah... Ah..." Ye Chenyu finally couldn''t stand the torture and cried. It seemed that there were thousands of insects and ants gnawing at him, which made him feel that life was better than death. And under such pain, the head is more and more illusory Such illusion made him suffer from the double attack of pain and happiness. Hearing the scream of pain from the tent, Maggie''s face was cold and turned to have a look. "Miss," someone stopped Maggie, "Sir told you not to go in." "Get out of the way!" Maggie looked sharp. The person who stopped not only didn''t get out of the way, but even someone raised a gun at Maggie, "Sir, if the young lady breaks in, she can only take you down first..." As soon as Maggie heard this, she knew that Mai de must have hit Ye Chenyu hard. She was worried and worried, regardless of the guns pointed at her. Just when Maggie was going to break in, Danto came forward and grabbed her "Let go!" Maggie is already angry. Isn''t it true that Mr. Ye Yu wants to see more pain in the tent, if Mr. Ye Yu doesn''t want to see it all the time Maggie gritted her teeth. "If Miss wants to keep Ye Chenyu, I''m afraid it can only be proved by Mr. Zhao today." Maggie didn''t understand, but she was worried about her father''s means. Finally, ye Chenyu couldn''t stand it "Danto is right," said Miao angdeng. "If the young lady breaks in now, he will die faster." Maggie suddenly clenched her hand. She doesn''t know what''s going on inside, but who is Ye Chenyu? Such a terrible cry, my father must have used the most extraordinary means What''s more, there''s a cold-blooded Shi Shaoqin who even people in the dark world are afraid of and can''t avoid?! Just when Maggie was worried, a sharp scream of "ah" came from the tent Chapter 1099 Ye Chenyu curled up on the ground, his body twitching under the control of drugs. His forehead, face and even body were covered with dense beads of sweat. The whole expression is tangled with ferocity because of pain Maide looked at him coldly, but his heart was a little pumping. It is said that the things in Mo palace make life worse than death. When you feel that death is liberation, you will find out how luxurious death is for you! Shi Shaoqin''s long and narrow eyes lifted slightly, and his eyes fell on Ye Chenyu, who was in pain, and gradually deepened his eyes. Not many people can stand the torture of this medicine. And Gu Beichen is a At that time, he was still very young and had not experienced any storms. I thought the last step was drug control, and he would compromise But the man''s performance was unexpected. Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes, and his sight just fell on his slender jade like hand. The corners of his mouth showed a faint smile with deep meaning. Gu Beichen''s family are all the robberies of his life, aren''t they? How did Gu Mingchen torture him at last?! Shi Shaoqin sighed softly, as if star''s clear and pure smile echoed in his ear. "Stone, star misses you..." The soft waxy voice hummed in my mind, showing the sweetness of a soft heart. If I knew this could soften my heart, shouldn''t I put you by my side? "Er..." The dull hum of pain was like the roar of a beast on the verge of despair. Interrupted Shi Shaoqin''s thoughts. He raised his eyes again and saw madder squatting down slowly "Say, why did you appear next to Maggie?" Matt asked in a gloomy voice. Ye Chenyu was now delirious and tortured by drugs. His eyes were unreal and weak, just like a lamb slaughtered by others. "Say..." A big man kicked Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu drooped his eyelids weakly. After the torture just now, his whole person looked depressed. "Not... Not me..." Ye Chenyu''s voice was confused, "not..." Maide''s eyes gathered and asked slowly, "how did you appear in Yangon?" "Bet..." Ye Chenyu''s nerve seemed to be caught by Maide and completely lost his ability to think. "Are you an undercover of the police?" Matt asked, "gambling is just to get closer to Maggie!" Ye Chenyu trembled at the corners of his mouth and wanted to speak, as if he had no strength. A bang came, and a heavy kick kicked Ye Chenyu again. "Oh!" Ye Chenyu''s body is swollen and painful everywhere at the moment. Such a foot is like sprinkling salt on the wound. "Did you go to Bailemen to gamble to get close to Maggie?" Matt asked in a low voice. Ye Chenyu wanted to lift his eyes. After several attempts, he couldn''t lift them up. "I took... Took a lot of... Money..." Ye Chenyu gasped. "I want to run... But... Or... I was found..." Intermittent voice, full of daze. Maide listened to Ye Chenyu''s words, and his eyes were obviously deeper. "Chen Chen came with you?" When ye Chenyu heard the name "Chen Yu", he obviously looked more painful. He curled up again and said in a weak voice, "I killed her... I killed her..." Ye Chenyu''s painful voice was filled with despair. "I can''t go back... I can''t go back..." Ye Chenyu shrank, and then said in a complicated voice: "she forced me... All forced me... Not me, not... Me..." Irresponsible words completely exposed Ye Chenyu''s heart. He resisted the fact and even tried to shirk the responsibility. With a glimmer of satisfaction in his eyes, Matt followed, asking some more questions. Ye Chenyu''s consciousness is becoming more and more blurred. When he is about to faint, he will always be kicked and forced to wake up a little. The nerve is pulled, and all the answers have no way to think and disguise. Shi Shaoqin''s indifference from beginning to end, for the question and answer between Maide and ye Chenyu, he couldn''t help but narrow his eyes If Gu Beichen endured the torture of this drug, he must be stubborn in disgust with him. But ye Chenyu Not only can he bear it, but in the end, he can answer macdow''s questions without leakage under the vague consciousness! Shi Shaoqin''s sight had narrowed into a gap, and then he opened it. Deep in the bottom of my eyes, there was a sense of obliteration Such a policeman, for them, is definitely a nightmare! Maide slowly stood up and looked at Ye Chenyu, who had only the last bit of consciousness, with a deep smile on his mouth. He motioned to the big man and then looked at the man who had injected Ye Chenyu with medicine before. The big man came forward, set up Ye Chenyu and dragged him out of the tent The man who injected the medicine and madder nodded slightly and followed out. "Qin Shao thought," Mai de turned to Shi Shaoqin, "how credible was his words just now?" Shi Shaoqin raised his eyes. His beautiful face was so indifferent, but his voice was oppressive. "If Mr. Mai thought my medicine was inappropriate, he shouldn''t have used it just now." "Clack clack, Clack clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack, clack. Shi Shaoqin looked back coldly, "wait a minute, go and see the goods first..." "Good!" Mai de listened to Shi Shaoqin and didn''t get angry because of his inappropriate words just now. He was secretly relieved. ¡­¡­ Maggie looked at Ye Chenyu who was dragged out, and her whole face changed. "What happened to him?" Maggie stared at Ye Chenyu, who was paralyzed and had no muscles and bones. She was so angry that she widened her eyes. "Just fainted." The man replied. When Maggie looked at Ye Chenyu, her eyes were full of worry. The man who followed said with a soft smile, "don''t worry, miss. He has passed the test of his husband." "Really?" Maggie woke up with a scratch from the bottom of her eyes. The man nodded and then motioned to the big man to take ye Chenyu to the tent. Maggie wanted to follow, but was blocked by the man. "What are you doing?" Maggie''s eyes were cold. "Miss, if you want him to die, you can confront me here..." "Miao Lun!" Maggie gnashed her teeth. Miao Lun always looked feminine. He bowed down with a smile and turned to signal the man to leave with Ye Chenyu. Maggie is at the base. Except for madder, there is only one Miao Lun who doesn''t want to be provoked. This man can''t listen to anyone except madder, including Maggie Maggie clenched her hand and could only let Miao Lun take them away first. "Follow them and see what happens. Don''t let them do anything to Ye Chenyu." Maggie looked at Danto. Danto answered and followed. The big man put the fainted Ye Chenyu on the bed and looked at Miao Lun. Miao Lun motioned and then took out a small needle tube from his pocket There is a slightly turbid liquid in it. While floating, it has a thorough and cold smell. Chapter 1100 Danto came in, looked at the needle tube in Miao Lun''s hand and asked, "what''s this?" "What do you say?" Miao Lun looked at Dan Tuo coldly, and a strange smile was put on the corner of his mouth. Danto frowned, "poison?!" It''s a question, but it''s also a certainty. Miao Lun didn''t speak, just took back his sight and walked indifferently towards Ye Chenyu Danto wanted to stop, "I''m afraid miss will be very unhappy if you do this." "If you let this man stay with the lady, you will be happy?" Miao Lun asked coldly. In a word, it makes Danto look complicated. "Even if Dan has been trusted for a long time, Mr. keto is not." Miao Lun said slowly, "this time, Mr. wants to be accompanied by an ambitious person, and Mr. Ye Chenyu obviously thinks it is appropriate." Danto was silent. "But if this man is given a ladder, he will climb to the top." Mr. Ye Xinye said, "Mr. Ye Xinye will sit down at last. How can he get his arm?" "Miss, I''m afraid..." "It doesn''t matter, young lady. A woman feels like a man when she has a man." Miao Lun sneered, "but don''t think about it. Men just use women as springboards." Danto suddenly clenched his hand, and some anger spread to the bottom of his eyes. "The only person who wants to control Ye Chenyu''s ambition is..." Miao Lun pushed the needle tube and said slowly with excited light at the bottom of his eyes, "... Poison!" Then, he had abnormal excitement in the fundus of his eyes. Sight drops with the needle The things in the needle tube were pushed into Ye Chenyu''s body bit by bit, and the excitement in his eyes burst. ¡­¡­ There was a cry of "um". Chen Yu suddenly woke up with a pair of apricot eyes and a thin sweat on his forehead. How could she dream like that? She even dreamed that ye Chenyu was suffering. Such suffering is not what people can bear at all Chen Yu closed her eyes and found that her heart beat faster and there was a light sound of "Dong Dong". Swallowed it secretly. Chen Yu lifted the quilt out of bed, put on a thin shirt, opened the door of the room and went out The wound on her chest had begun to heal, but she didn''t dare to make big moves because she was almost close to her heart. She doesn''t know when to start the final action, but she wants to participate. She needs to recover now. Madder, she must catch it with her own hands. Chen Yu also believes that ye Chenyu will give her this opportunity Chen doesn''t know when this inexplicable trust began. Xu was imperceptibly influenced before. Xu was that shot! Standing under the eaves and looking at the training team in the distance, Chen Yu was a little nervous. How is he now? Can you get Macquarie''s trust after being fully trusted by Macquarie? It should be ok After all, ye Chenyu''s adaptability is so strong! Chen Yu gradually lost her mind. She found that she began to think a little Even, only think about the good, unwilling to analyze the possible problems. Ye Chenyu said that women are emotional animals, and their thinking ability will be influenced by emotion And she is a psychoanalyst and knows this very well. Because I know Chen Yu found that her feelings for ye Chenyu were inexplicable, but it seemed logical. Time passes day by day. While recovering from his injury, Chen Yu waited for the news of his action. But she didn''t think of it. She waited for half a month. Her wound has completely scabbed, and she pays attention to maintenance. As long as it''s not a big move, she has no problem. "Sister Chen..." Qiao Rui looked at the man who got out of the car and stood up with his eyes lit up. Yang Jinyu and Lu Xiaowei''s eyes'' Shua ''also looked at the past, and surprised one after another. They had been informed that Chen was all right before, but when they saw someone standing in front of them, they were still excited. Chen Yu and the three nodded and went to the command room first. Qiao Rui and others looked at each other and breathed a sigh of relief. "Yang Zi, your gun transformation is still very awesome..." Lu Xiaowei licked his face and said with a smile. Yang Jinyu glanced sideways at him and said indifferently, "someone hated it before." "Yes? Who? Who is it?" Lu Xiaowei pretended to be a fool. Yang Jinyu rarely picked up the corners of his mouth and smiled. He didn''t pierce Lu Xiaowei. At that time, he was silly to hear that Chen Yu was seriously injured. He clearly changed the caliber of the gun. The bullet wouldn''t go too deep into his body, but it would look very scary. He almost doubted whether his transformation was inappropriate not so bad! While thinking, someone patted him on the shoulder twice. Yang Jinyu looked at Qiao Rui and heard him say, "brother Yu trusts you very much..." Qiao Rui smiled and patted Yang Jinyu on the shoulder and turned to the command room. Yang Jinyu''s eyes twinkled with moving light. Qiao Rui''s words made his big masters'' noses sour. Yes Brother Yu didn''t hesitate to shoot Chen because he trusted his ability to transform the gun! Fortunately, he didn''t live up to brother Yu''s trust. Yang Jinyu drooped his eyes, and the smile on the corner of his mouth was a little deeper. In the command room, Xie Qifeng is deploying the next operation. Seeing Chen Yu come in, he motioned her to participate in the discussion. In the five member group, ye Chenyu went undercover, while Chen Yu took the initiative to ask to participate in the operation. Xie Qifeng believed in her ability and naturally had no reason to refuse. "Chen Chen, are you sure you can?" Xie Qifeng asked. Chen Yu nodded, "I won''t make fun of myself or my actions..." ¡°OK£¡¡± Xie Qifeng didn''t say much and took the Virginia password solved by the technicians. "Ye Chenyu came back with the news that he has temporarily gained the trust of Maide. He has seen the abducted children and the so-called ''experiment''!" Chen Yu swallowed involuntarily, and the original memory broke into his mind. She calmed down and continued to listen to Xie Qifeng''s analysis. Because ye Chenyu can''t send back a lot of news, we can only rely on what we observe and get on weekdays. "If there''s no accident, three days later..." Xie Qifeng said, "that''s the day ye Chenyu sent back that Feng puppet group was going to ship!" "Good!" Chen Ying Sheng. Xie Qifeng sighed heavily, "I hope there''s still time to save those children..." Chen Yu glanced at the corner of his lower lip, and the fundus of his eyes was already sharp, "it must be OK." Xie Qifeng nodded and took the area map formulated by one side''s deputy, "the four of you are responsible for this position and meet Ye Chenyu at any time..." "Yes!" Chen Ying Sheng. "You''re in charge of and deployment of your people for the time being," Xie Qifeng said deeply. "I''ll equip you with four people... Is there a problem?" Chen Yu smiled. "When the action starts, all problems are not problems, only solutions!" In public and private, she must also do it! Chapter 1101 Two days later As a seaport city, boson is full of prosperity at night. Boson''s largest hotel, the supreme suite, is full of calm stress. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window with his pocket in one hand, looked at the bustling harbor line and dialed Shi juechi''s phone "Stone..." It wasn''t Shi Jue Chi, it was star. There was excitement in the soft voice. Shi Shaoqin''s originally indifferent face softened in an instant. "Stone, are you... Coming back?" In star''s voice, there was hope. The little guy hasn''t seen Shi Shaoqin for more than 20 days. His bright eyes are dim because of missing. "There''s no accident. You can arrive at the Mo palace the day after tomorrow." Shi Shaoqin said softly. As soon as star listened, his eyes lit up, "really?" "Well..." "Great!" Happy call from star. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes softened, as if this trip was not so boring. After chatting with star for a while, Shi Shaoqin hung up. In such a large suite, calm was restored again, but there was no depression just now. "Yay, yay!" There was a sound of opening the door. Shi Shaoqin turned slowly and saw the two people who had been following him come in. "Qin Shao!" Shi Shaoqin made a noise in his throat and sat down on the sofa. "Mai de will deliver the goods tomorrow, and ye Chenyu will go with Mai Qi''er..." one of them said, "Xu is the first big deal for him to make a comeback. He finally decided to go there in person." Shi Shaoqin was not surprised by such a decision. He knew the party who received the goods, but inadvertently talked about madder''s things. When the receiving party heard him mention it, it naturally subconsciously felt that he must be interested. Instead of waiting for the ink palace to get involved and make the price higher, it''s better to enter more in advance Plus, people''s desire is inflated. With this idea, how can you feel less when you enter the goods. Adding a lot of goods will make Maide uneasy. It is inevitable that maiqi''er and ye Chenyu will go by themselves. If there is no accident, I''m afraid... The action of the police will also be scheduled for tomorrow. ¡­¡­ Wind puppet group base. The solemn atmosphere lingers Ye Chenyu looked at the guns on the table and finally took two more suitable ones. "Nervous?" Asked Maggie. Ye Chenyu leaned lazily on the table, glanced across the delivery man tomorrow and looked at Maggie. "OK..." The indifferent voice shows some lack of spirit. Ye Chenyu wants to hide it, but obviously, he can''t! Mai Qier looked at Ye Chenyu''s alienation from the bottom of his eyes, endured it, and said to the end, "if I knew Miao Lun would give you an injection, I wouldn''t stop it..." Ye Chenyu frowned and said coldly, "is it meaningful to say these?" "Ye Chenyu, I want to use this to control you. I did it when you were brought back to the villa for the first time." Maggie gritted her teeth and her eyes were sad. "I believe you..." Ye Chenyu sighed softly and grabbed Mai Qier. "Here, I don''t believe you. Who else can I believe?" Maggie was moved in her heart, and her eyes gradually dispersed, cold and fierce, and became tender. For more than ten days, it may be because ye Chenyu is more and more dependent on her. "When the shipment is finished, I''ll let you become my woman..." Ye Chenyu''s eyes fall in front, and they are getting scarlet. "Of course, if Mr. Mai agrees, we might as well have a wedding directly." When Maggie heard this, her whole face fell into shame. She gently stirred her eyes and said, "Ye Chenyu, let me be your woman tonight?" Ye Chenyu looked at Maggie, "anyway, day by day, you are my woman." He pinched Maggie''s cheek. "I have to get up early tomorrow. I want to have fun. Tonight is not a good time..." Full of ambiguous words, full of charm under evil atmosphere. Maggie just felt her heart beat faster. Obviously, she is not a little girl in that respect, but under the gaze of Ye Chenyu, she can''t control her shame. "Well, it''s up to you..." Maggie smiled charmingly. "Come back and I''ll take good care of you." Ye Chenyu smiled, let go of Maggie and got up, "have a rest early..." At the same time, he had turned and walked out. When he closed the cages of hundreds of children of different sizes, he passed indifferently The children in the front row opened their eyes one by one, and their eyes were shocked with fear as someone passed by. The next day, the weather became hotter after entering the midsummer. Even in the mountains and forests, you can''t feel cool. The sound of insects in such a weather seems to dislike that you are not irritable enough. It sounds one after another and is full of noise Ye Chenyu sat by the bed and looked at a wooden box with scarlet eyes. The breath gradually became rapid, and the ear kept rowing through the messy footsteps outside. No accident, today will definitely act! Ye Chenyu closed his eyes, opened the box, and quickly took out the needle tube and the injection prepared in advance. Holding it in his hand, ye Chenyu had an uncontrollable desire and urgency for it. Breathing is getting a little heavy. Ye Chenyu clenched the root of his teeth and made a "yiyiyi" sound. After a while, when ye Chenyu was about to crush the needle, he slowly released his hand A touch of self mockery crossed the bottom of my eyes Today is a critical time. Even if it is difficult in the future, he must survive today! Ye Chenyu indifferently inhaled the injection into the needle tube and pierced the tip of the needle into his arm At the moment of pushing the medicine, his whole face was uncontrollable The original scarlet and weak eyes were filled with bright light because of the injection. It''s just that such light is not normal "Chenyu, come out in half an hour..." when Maggie''s words came, the curtain of the tent was lifted and she came in. Seeing ye Chenyu pull out the needle indifferently, Maggie stared, "you just injected yesterday. Why are you injecting again?" Ye Chenyu casually threw the needle on the table and said indifferently, "I think I can''t control it." "Chenyu..." "Maggie, you should know very well how pure the poison that Mullen injected me is?" Ye Chenyu said coldly, "do you want me to go out with your father for the first time and screw up because of addiction?" The corners of Maggie''s mouth moved and wanted to say something. Finally, she didn''t know how to say it "Don''t worry, I''ll be with you." Ye Chenyu got up, took a coat on one side, put it on, looked at it, and Maggie said, "let''s go!" At the same time, he had passed Macquarie except for the tent Standing outside, ye Chenyu looked around and walked in the direction of Maide. This time, no matter how difficult it is, the action can''t be wrong! Chapter 1102 In the mountain forest full of insects, the atmosphere is treacherous. Xie Qifeng and others were deployed around according to the news from ye Chenyu. "1 group in place." "2 groups in place..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± From the satellite receiving earphone, the sound of each group arriving at the designated position came. "Five groups in place!" Finally, Chen''s voice came from the headset. "According to the previous plan, after breaking up the whole into parts, the direction of action will remain unchanged, and each will act according to the situation..." Xie Qifeng said sharply, "do you understand?" "Copy that!" "Yes..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu''s eyes were slightly Ling and his voice was sonorous, "understand!" After Xie Qifeng received everyone''s reply and explained the action preparation, they lurked in their respective positions. The temperature is rising with noon. It''s muggy everywhere. You can see the heat wave in your eyes. Because of waiting, the surrounding air gradually becomes condensed and depressed everywhere. In this operation, two teams cut off Mai De''s back road, two teams went to carry the nest of the wind puppet group, and the remaining team became the action team Chen Yu''s group is an action team. "Sister Yu," said Qiao Rui, feeling that the atmosphere was a little too heavy, "do you think brother Yu was eaten by that Maggie?" Chen Yu frowned slightly and looked at Qiao Rui coldly. Qiao Rui continued with a grin: "how can I say that brother Yu is also tall and powerful, full of boyfriend Power Max... I''m afraid it''s impossible for Maggie to watch without eating!" "Shut up!" Chen said coldly. "It''s all right. I guess brother Yu has strong determination, so don''t worry..." Qiao Rui didn''t shut up and continued. Chen Yu helplessly rolled his eyes. "Are you nervous?" Qiao Rui was pierced and said angrily, "I''m not nervous enough. I''m just thinking about brother Yu''s deployment this month. If it turns yellow in the end, it''s too bad." "I believe him..." Chen Yu''s eyes were burning, "there will be no accident." "I naturally believe brother Yu. I''m anxious to wait now..." Qiao Rui moved slightly and looked around, "afraid to go out..." "Shh!" Chen Yu''s eyes gathered. Qiao Rui shut up immediately. He held his breath, but didn''t find any sound. He couldn''t help looking at Chen. Chen Yu ignored him, but his eyes became more and more united. Lu Xiaowei lay on the ground and kept lighting the satellite receiver in his hand. "Thermal sensing shows that people are one kilometer away... Enter our control range." Chen Chen nodded slightly, and the voices of other groups came from the headphones. ¡­¡­ The sound of insects became more unscrupulous at noon. Matt looked around and then looked at the time. "There is less than an hour left from the agreed time. Let''s have a rest first." At the same time, his eyes inadvertently crossed Ye Chenyu standing with Maggie. Mullen and madder sat together, handed him the kettle and said, "Sir, do you think something''s wrong?" Maide looked around. "This time, the goods are in large quantities," he drank. "If it is done, the next step of cooperation with Mo palace will be natural." Miao Lun nodded and his eyes fell on Maggie. In front of Ye Chenyu, she didn''t remember that she was the eldest lady of the wind puppet group. Serve a man without saying, that man still ignores. "Sir, let Miss do it?" Maide glanced and said indifferently, "Ye Chenyu is very capable. If he didn''t have concerns, he would be a good helper." Miao Lun also admitted this, "the good thing is that this man rebelled because of his desire. If he is still a policeman, he must be a headache." "Yes." Matt answered. As the rest time passed, I saw that the agreed time was coming, but no one came. "Sir, something''s wrong..." Miao Lun frowned slightly. Maide has also found out. He looks at the time. According to reason, the other party should arrive. But not only was there no one, but there was even some terrible silence around. Matt suddenly stood up and looked around with a pair of sophisticated eyes. After looking around, he felt more and more that the smell in the air was wrong. "Back!" Madder said suddenly. Originally, some lazy people were stunned and stood up one by one. Some didn''t understand. "Dad, what''s the matter?" Maggie frowned. Ye Chenyu''s eyes focused, "something''s wrong. The time is almost up, but the other party didn''t come." Mai de looked at Ye Chenyu and felt the same about him and himself. He felt a touch of appreciation from the bottom of his eyes. Miao Lun has taken out the walkie talkie and wants to see what''s going on at the base However, there was a "Yiyi" sound from the walkie talkie. It was obvious that someone had put a jammer nearby. "Does the other party want to swallow the goods?" When Maggie thought of what ye Chenyu had just told her before, she asked instinctively. Matt looked at Maggie and his eyes were slightly heavy Thinking of the other party''s sudden addition of goods, it was still several times more than the original reservation, and suddenly felt that Maggie''s speculation was reasonable. "Go ahead, sir?" Miao Lun asked. Matt nodded and motioned the crowd to retreat The moment Ye Chenyu turned around, he looked around and followed the people back. He didn''t know what Xie Qifeng''s deployment was, and he had less than a day''s contact with that man. He can only guess by instinct, plus how he will deploy if he is in Xie Qifeng''s position Suddenly "Da Da!" A gunshot suddenly came, and the people in front had been swept down several times The sudden accident made Maide and others panic in an instant, but they soon recovered their calm. "Sir, the back road has been cut off..." Miao angdeng''s voice came. "Go back!" Maide gritted his teeth and thought that the other party ate black. There was no way. While fighting with the people who cut off the road, they retreated again "Sir, this is not the way, I''m afraid..." Miao Lun''s words were not finished yet. Behind him, there was a gunshot. Everyone dodged and fired at the place where the gunshot came from. But they were in the light and the other was in the dark. After a burst of random shooting, they didn''t play any role at all. "Stare at the goods..." Maide gritted his teeth and looked at several people with suitcases in his hands. The crowd answered, and the cat was in the trees and grass, waiting for the opportunity. Ye Chenyu, with a gun in his hand, crossed his eyes with a pair of fierce eyes, and said in a low voice: "if you want to swallow the goods, it depends on whether they have this ability..." He pulled open the safety bolt of the gun. "You two, go with me to explore the way." Then he got up slightly and wanted to explore the way under the shelter of the trees "Chenyu!" With a worried face, Maggie pulled Ye Chenyu''s clothes. Ye Chenyu looked back and gave her a stable look, "I won''t let you do anything, huh?" Chapter 1103 In a word, it makes Maggie feel at ease in an instant. Even Mai de looked at Ye Chenyu with appreciation Ye Chenyu took two people, cat waist, and cautiously went to explore the way For macdow, if there is no problem ahead, of course, everyone can evacuate. But if there is a problem, ye Chenyu and they just give them "guidance"! "Everybody prepare..." Maide and Miao Lun said after looking at each other. Suddenly, everyone was on alert at any time. Time, because suddenly become quiet and particularly difficult. It''s Midsummer, but it makes people''s back cold "Bang!" "Bang bang!" "Da Da..." Suddenly, a gunshot came from the front, and then a scream came faintly Maggie suddenly widened her eyes. Uncontrollably, she wanted to get up and see the situation, but Danto grabbed her. "Let go..." Maggie shook off Danto with great strength. Danto didn''t know whether it was because of her strength or her momentum that she got rid of him. While Maide suddenly stared, maiqi''er held the gun and the cat waist wanted to go to the place where ye Chenyu had gone before "Sir?" Miao Lun frowned, looked at Danto and Miao angdeng had followed, and said with deep eyes, "now it''s not a way for us to be surrounded inside..." "Bang!" Before he had finished speaking, there was a gunshot. This time, it''s from the rear Matt gritted his teeth. "It''s wrapped!" "Break through," he said as he swept two shots towards the rear "Yes!" The crowd answered and walked in the direction of Maggie They have seen the firepower in the rear and can only pray that the firepower in front can break through. "Sir, go to nine o''clock..." Miao Lun suddenly remembered something. "Although there is a certain danger over there, it is easy to defend but difficult to attack." Matt remembered it when he reminded him. Nodding, he motioned everyone to retreat in that direction Maggie also wanted to see ye Chenyu''s situation, but Miao angdeng held her, "Miss, this is not a capricious time!" "Put..." "Maggie!" Matt said in a deep voice and looked over coldly. What else did Maggie want to say? When she came into contact with the dark and cold warning eyes of Maide, she immediately bit her teeth. She looked anxiously at the place where ye Chenyu disappeared and clenched her teeth. She had to leave with Maide and them first "No one came?" Qiao Rui''s voice was slightly frozen. Ye Chenyu frowned slightly. According to the way he lowered his head to Maggie these two days, when he heard gunshots and screams, she would come "They walked towards three o''clock..." Lu Xiaowei said, looking at the heat sensor. The roads on both sides are blocked, and Miao Lun won''t let madder wait to die Maggie didn''t come Ye Chenyu quickly flashed questions in his mind, and then a cold light flashed across his eyes, "action!" Hearing this, Chen Yu immediately issued an order. She subconsciously looked at Ye Chenyu, who had got up and fled to Maide. She didn''t see this person for more than 20 days. At this moment, she had an unspeakable taste. I don''t know why. She thinks there''s something wrong with Ye Chenyu?! Chen Yu has no time to think about it. The war under the confrontation is imminent The place Miao Lun said is really easy to defend and difficult to attack. Chen Chen''s side has three groups of more than 30 people, but he can''t attack for a long time. Even, the death and injury were more than expected. The smell of gunpowder filled the sultry mountains and forests, and from time to time there were dull hum and scream. The two sides are in a state of anxiety. Chen Yu and others can''t win it for a long time, but they want to escape, which is obviously impossible Chen Yu looked at Mai de in the distance. The uncontrollable whole person was angry and murderous. Even, some people who lose their calmness want to rush forward But just got up and was pulled by Ye Chenyu. Without any words, when they looked up, one eye was full of anger and the other was full of calm warning. Chen Yu''s breathing was a little short. At this moment, he couldn''t even stop it. However, when she saw Ye Chenyu''s cold eyes, she was inexplicable and gradually calmed down. "Today he must be arrested," said Ye Chenyu in a strange voice. "You are a ''dead'' man and can''t appear clearly." Chen Yu closed his eyes and understood Ye Chenyu''s meaning, but he didn''t find the difference when he spoke. Gunfire was still heard, mixed with shouts from both sides. The temperature is getting higher and higher with the movement of time. People are in a stalemate, and their clothes have already been soaked. "Brother Yu, it''s not the way to go on like this..." Qiao Rui rubbed to Ye Chenyu in the rear. Ye Chenyu didn''t speak, but predicted in his heart who else could be left over from Maide at the moment. "Use me as a hostage..." Ye Chenyu said. Qiao Rui widened his eyes and immediately said, "no, they will doubt..." "But there is also a time of hesitation," Ye Chenyu''s eyes gradually filled with blood, "besides, there is Maggie..." After that, he didn''t even react to Qiao Rui and Chen Yu. He took a gun with a silencer and shot himself in his left arm. "Ye Chenyu!" "Brother Yu..." Chen Yu and Qiao Rui stared wide. "If you don''t do a little drama, it''s hard to delay..." Ye Chenyu said and motioned to Qiao Rui. Qiao Rui gritted his teeth and knew that he couldn''t allow him to think much at the moment. He immediately went to the front with Ye Chenyu Mai Qier looked at Ye Chenyu, who was held by others, and his eyes fell on the gunshot wound on his arm. He was shocked and rushed out without thinking. Everything happened so fast that Mai de and others didn''t have time to think. Mai Qi''er had rushed out. "Let him go..." Maggie gritted her teeth. The mood of worrying was full of her tense nerves, and she kept shooting indiscriminately. Such a Maggie is not only incomprehensible to Maide, but also unexpected to Ye Chenyu. "Ye Chenyu must be undercover..." Danto suddenly shouted in M language. This sentence, whether true or false, has caused a great shock at this moment Maggie forgot her reaction and stared at Ye Chenyu A muffled sound came, and the bullet disappeared into Maggie''s body in an instant. "Miss -" He stared at Michael Dan and fell down in front of him. At the right time, the firepower of both sides is fully open. However, due to the "episode" just now, Maide and others have lost the first opportunity As ye Chenyu expected, the hesitation of Mai de and them for a moment is doomed to the end. However, in this end, the loss of police personnel is also very heavy Maide stared and made a final confrontation with a unwilling face, "you are indeed an undercover!" Maggie looked at Ye Chenyu in despair, as if she couldn''t believe it at this moment. Ye Chenyu didn''t even look at Mai Qi''er, but looked at Mai de coldly, "unfortunately, it''s too late for you to be sure..." Chapter 1104 Maide''s eyes were scarlet. At this moment, he couldn''t believe that his suspicious character was cheated by Ye Chenyu. Maggie covered the gunshot wound in her abdomen, with complex emotions in her deep eyes. Danto looked at Ye Chenyu angrily while holding Maggie From beginning to end, he didn''t believe him. Unfortunately, whether he believes it or not has no effect at all After all, the young lady believed in him, and gradually, the husband also believed in him. Even before this mission, took him to the base. Miao Lun was quite calm, but he looked at Ye Chenyu with deeper and deeper vision. The medicine of Mo palace is not what ordinary people can bear Even if it is endured, it is impossible to say a watertight answer under the vague consciousness. If ye Chenyu didn''t have an extraordinary will, how did he do it?! Miao Lun was suddenly glad that his husband had left his hand and injected him with poison. "Sir..." Miao Lun whispered, "wait..." At the same time, Miao Lun rowed behind Maide several times... The voice became very small, and no one heard except Maide. Maide clenched his teeth secretly, and his eyes showed a fierce light with Miao Lun''s words. After the confrontation between the two sides just now, there is a gap that is more conducive to their escape Ye Chenyu looked slightly down and thought of something. He just wanted to speak, but it was too late. Just listen to the sound of "bang", a burst of strong light suddenly appeared, and then the white fog spread Because ye Chenyu thought of something before, when Miao Lun threw flash bombs and fog bombs, his subconscious instinct turned his head and closed his eyes. The air is filled with a strange smell, which does not belong to ammunition. Ye Chenyu only felt his nose itch, and a ''buzzing'' across his head made him deaf for a moment. But it was just a moment, and the uncomfortable feeling gradually disappeared He didn''t have time to think about it. Holding a gun in both hands and hanging his hands, he had already followed. Chen Yu came from the rear and looked at his people buffering one by one because of the flash bomb... When he slightly twisted his eyebrows, he saw that ye Chenyu had rushed out of the fog and chased after him. Regardless of others, Chen Yu hurried forward "Bang, bang, bang!" "Da Da..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The gunfire rang out again. Miao angdeng and Dan Tuo resisted Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu who followed. The two bodyguards were born with first-class close combat, but obviously, the long-range shooting and sensitivity are not as good as those trained by Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu. But even so, when Qiao Rui and others followed, they had already delayed time. "Don''t let them die, O Rui and Yang Zi..." Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu, "and you, come with me!" After the explanation, ye Chenyu took one of the team members'' satellite receiving headphones and hurried to the place where they disappeared. After chasing for a while, ye Chenyu''s eyes gathered slightly. "Let''s chase separately... I''m on the left, between Chen Yu and Yang Zi, and ah Rui''s right!" "Yes!" The crowd responded and quickly searched for the three places. Now there are only four people left. Maggie is still injured and can''t escape far The smell of mountains and forests is becoming more and more dignified. Maybe it''s because of the afternoon, maybe it''s because of the pressure in the mountains and forests, as if the sound of insects had disappeared. There is only quiet depression everywhere! Ye Chenyu and others searched in three places respectively. As the linear distance became more and more scattered, it seemed that the tense breath in the air became more and more dignified. Qiao Rui''s eyes are burning. He moves forward carefully and probes everywhere. Suddenly The sound of "bang" came, and Qiao Rui only felt that his nerve was about to be broken. There was a gunshot in the headset. Qiao Rui hurriedly asked, "where is it?" "Poof!" "Well..." Qiao Rui''s words fell, and a bullet had disappeared into his body. Regardless of anything else, he turned and fired a shot at the bullet. At the same time, he looked for a favorable place to cover. Almost at the same time, the people pursued by the three parties entered the battle passively. Ye Chenyu had to admire Miao Lun. He was the military division of the wind puppet group. Instead of confronting one place, the whole army may be destroyed. It''s better to break it one by one. Besides, here, they are far more familiar with the terrain than them. There is something behind me. Ye Chenyu didn''t move any more, but his eyes looked forward slightly. "You lied to me," Maggie''s breath was obviously short, mixed with anger under sadness. "You lied to me from beginning to end!" Ye Chenyu wanted to turn back, and Maggie''s gun came forward, "don''t move! Or I''ll end you with one shot..." Ye Chenyu didn''t move, but said quietly, "Maggie, you''ve lost the best time." "Let''s try. Is your action fast or my gun fast..." "Then you shoot!" Ye Chenyu said fiercely at the moment when Maggie fell. Maggie gritted her teeth. "At this moment, do you think I''ll think of you?" Her eyes were full of malice because of grief and anger. "Ye Chenyu, I didn''t expect you to be so cruel to your own people and yourself in the police." "If not, can you believe it?" Ye Chenyu hissed coldly and suddenly turned around. With the momentum of lightning, he lifted Maggie''s grab up and kicked her in the stomach. "Oh!" Mai Qier covered her already injured abdomen and made a muffled sound. She stared at Ye Chenyu fiercely and suddenly felt that she was a joke. This man is acting from beginning to end Even make her intoxicated! Just now it was clear that she could end him with a sneak shot, but what did she do? She just wants an answer! "Chen Yu is not dead?" "Yes!" "Is she the one you love?" Ye Chenyu paused, "it doesn''t count..." "From beginning to end, not only to me, but also to her, are you acting?" "Yes!" Ye Chenyu didn''t think about the answer. Maggie smiled bitterly. "Without any emotion, you can play so lifelike... Ye Chenyu, should I say you are ruthless or affectionate?" Ye Chenyu didn''t answer. "However, I heard that you have no feelings for Chen. Even if I die today, I won''t lose!" Maggie gritted her teeth and said, "after all, she''s a woman... I don''t think she''s acting!" The conversation between Ye Chenyu and Maggie spread from the satellite headset Yang Jinyu, who was confronting Maide, frowned slightly. He just shook his mind for a moment and lost his first chance. Just as ye Chenyu took the handcuffs just removed from others and handcuffed Maggie with his back hand, Yang Jinyu roared from his headphones: "Chen Yu --" Ye Chenyu''s eyes suddenly gathered and hurriedly informed the rear personnel of Mai Qier''s location. Regardless of others, he ran across to Chen Chen''s position When the man got there, he saw Chen holding a small trunk as thick as her wrist. The little tree has a momentum of rising from the ground because it can''t bear the falling power of Chen Yu Chapter 1105 Ye Chenyu didn''t care about the current situation, so he ran to Chen Yu "Brother Yu, be careful..." Suddenly, Yang Jinyu screamed. "Bang!" Chen Yu''s eyes widened. At the moment when the sapling was pulled up, ye Chenyu rushed forward regardless of the gunshot wound on his leg At the last minute, he grabbed Chen Yu''s hand. But even so, Chen''s falling momentum never stopped Different from the last time in the field club, this time it is not a big slope, but surrounded by trees, unable to see the abyss. Chen Chen, who has no support and focus at all, keeps pulling down the momentum like a kilo drop. Ye Chenyu pulled Chen Yu to death, but because he just didn''t have time to make any response, he had to rely on instinct He held Chen Yu''s hand with his left hand. And in his left arm, he shot there before. Ye Chenyu grabbed another tree with his right hand and dragged Chen Yu with his left hand Can see, Chen zhe pulled him a little bit to move. Two hands from the top of the cliff, gradually, have moved to the edge of the cliff Yang Jinyu struggled to come over to help, when he heard a stuffy hum. Miao Lun, who had been with Maide, smashed Yang Jinyu''s head with the butt of his gun. Suddenly, he just felt a hot sticky smell with a bloody smell Maide went to Ye Chenyu, took the gun, grabbed the right arm of the tree and fired a shot at Ye Chenyu. "Er..." Ye Chenyu roared, almost conditioned, and he almost let go. Maide''s eyes were scarlet and shot Ye Chenyu in the right arm. Ye Chenyu''s forehead has overflowed with cold sweat. He is biting his teeth. He originally held the tree''s hand and began to vibrate uncontrollably "Let go..." Chen Yu gritted his teeth, "you let go!" Ye Chenyu''s eyes are scarlet. Half of his head has been dragged out of the cliff He didn''t speak, but his face was tense and his teeth were clenched. He looked at Chen Yu I used to hold her hand, but I worked harder. "Didn''t you kill her?" Mai de had already come over, and the whole person became crazy. "Then I''ll let her die in your hands today. What do you say?" Ye Chenyu''s forehead overflowed with big beads of sweat, which became crystal clear in the sun. Just as a drop of sweat fell on Chen''s face, there was a bang "Ah --" At the same time, ye Chenyu pulled her arm and blood quickly fell on her face. "Let go, let go..." Chen Chen gritted his teeth. "Ye Chenyu, if you don''t let go, we will die together... Let go!" "Don''t let go..." Ye Chenyu pulled out an ugly smile at her. Chen Yu immediately cried. No matter how strong he was, he became fragile at this moment before he died. What ye Chenyu and Maggie said just now, she really heard. So cold, do not need any acting at all Obviously, he can use his "feelings" for her to subdue Maggie faster. But he didn''t! No good When she died, he had the most guilt, but no pain. "Bang!" Another shot fell on Ye Chenyu''s arm, with a sharp, crazy laughter Miao Lun looked around. "Sir, solve it quickly. If we don''t solve it, we can''t go." At that time, he divided people into three directions. He was almost sure that ye Chenyu would face to the left. That was human inertia instinct. He knows, and ye Chenyu naturally knows. Therefore, ye Chenyu would go after the other side by himself, but he and his husband didn''t go there. He let the lady pass... Just to delay time. And everything is indeed as he expected Chen Yu didn''t expect to die so soon, but Chen Yu didn''t. These two people are too difficult to deal with "Sir!" Miao Lun looked at the dying Yang Jinyu and shouted again. Mai de didn''t seem to hear Miao Lun''s dissuasion. Just when ye Chenyu''s whole head had been dragged out by Chen, he shot Ye Chenyu in the right arm "Please, let go..." Chen zhe cried, gritting his teeth and shouting, "I just want to catch Maide!" Ye Chenyu''s blood kept falling on Chen Yu''s head, even dripping from her eyes She cried and begged Ye Chenyu to let go. She knew that ye Chenyu was procrastinating. As long as Qiao Rui or the people in the rear arrived... There was hope for everything. However, I''m afraid she and ye Chenyu will both die and Maide will run away before waiting for backup. "Let go -" Chen Yu roared. Ye Chenyu''s face had turned white, and even his lips began to tremble. At the moment, the pain comes not only from the gunshot wound on the body, but also from the torture in the body He felt something wrong with the smoke bomb at that time. I''m afraid... Miao Lun put some things in it that can confuse his mind. So the people from the rear haven''t come yet. A Rui and Yang Jinyu are also a little weaker than their usual combat effectiveness And he was aroused by drug addiction in his body. The body is moving forward slowly Ye Chenyu could even feel his hand holding the trunk, shaking and twitching uncontrollably. "Ye Chenyu, I beg you to let go, let go, let go -" Chen Yu looked up, his face was full of tears, mixed with Ye Chenyu''s blood, especially seeping. "Before, a Rui showed me a joke picture..." Ye Chenyu''s face was white and breathless. "Just like our current situation... The people at the bottom also... Also shout the people at the top to let go... But the people at the top always... Never let go..." Chen Shu''s tears flowed out even more. She also saw the picture It''s not that the person above didn''t let go, but that person at the bottom deliberately put strong glue on his hand. When the person at the bottom shouted ''let go'', the person holding it shouted angrily: I fucking want to let go, but it stuck This is a joke! Chen Yu closed his eyes and squeezed out the tears in his eyes. When is it? He''s still joking Ye Chenyu pulled the corners of his mouth and his eyes were scarlet. "Chen Chen, fuck... Did you also put super glue on my hand?" Chen Yu began to cry bitterly. She opened her eyes and looked up at Ye Chenyu. Her tears blurred his illusory sight At this moment, he is still joking! "Ye Chenyu, I like you!" Chen zhe choked and said, "whether you like me or not, I don''t know when I fell in love with you..." She sobbed, "I''m afraid it''s too late to say. I''m afraid I''ll leave a regret in the end..." Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth and dragged Chen Yu, and strongly endured the attack of drug addiction in his body. "I thought my only belief in this life was to fulfill uncle Lin''s aspirations and wishes, but at this moment, I knew it was not..." "Ye Chenyu, if..." cried Chen. "If there is a future, I don''t want to be strong. I also want to find someone to protect... And this person, I hope it''s you..." "By now, still acting?" Maide glared fiercely, "there''s no need for the future. I''ll send him to accompany you... Protect you now!" Matt gnashed his teeth and slowly raised his gun At the last moment, when Chen Yu was still hoping that ye Chenyu would let go, the barrel of Maide''s gun had been against Ye Chenyu, holding the tree''s hand Just one more shot! Ye Chenyu will let go and the two will fall together Madder''s eyes filled with excitement and slowly pulled the trigger "Bang!" Chapter 1106 "Ah --" Chen Yu screamed with a crash. Just as she closed her eyes and waited desperately for ye Chenyu to fall off the cliff with her, she found that she didn''t fall down quickly! Suddenly open your eyes and look up I saw Maide lying on the spot with staring eyes. At the moment of death, it seemed that he didn''t believe such a reversal plot. Ye Chenyu has already clenched his teeth. With his last strength, he tries to pull Chen up But obviously, he has a heart but not enough strength. The gunshot sounded in his ear. When Miao Lun wanted to solve Ye Chenyu first, he didn''t know where it came from and hit him in the middle of his eyebrow. Like Matt, they don''t know. They didn''t hear the sound of reinforcements. Where did the last bullet come from! With a loud bang, Miao Lun fell beside Yang Jinyu, and his body finally twitched. Ye Chenyu doesn''t care who put the gun. He can''t hold it anymore He must pull Chen up! This belief is the last thing ye Chenyu has left "Er..." Ye Chenyu roared like a beast in his throat. With the force, the blood on the arm kept overflowing. But after several efforts, ye Chenyu couldn''t pull Chen up There was "tranquility" in the rear, and the occasional sound of insects came. "Chen Chen," Ye Chenyu''s eyes became more and more unreal, and his voice became weak, "it seems... We can''t let you go, we can only go down together..." Chen Yu''s nose sour. At this moment, she didn''t think that Mai De, who had to be captured alive, was dead But I don''t know who shot him. I can''t think why Qiao Rui didn''t come and even the people behind him didn''t come In her eyes, there was only Ye Chenyu at this moment. "Although I think you have suffered a loss," Chen Shu smiled as she shed tears. "Ye Chenyu... This moment is the happiest and happiest I have ever lived." Chen Yu sucked her nose and watched Ye Chenyu fall by herself. Gradually, she pulled half of her body out of the cliff. Her heart was aching uncontrollably Chen Yu began to turn his hand, regardless of Ye Chenyu''s grasp, trying to break free But clearly seeing his weakness, Chen Yu couldn''t get rid of Ye Chenyu''s shackles. Chen Yu''s mouth trembled violently. She wanted to shout Ye Chenyu to let go, but she found that his breathing was getting heavier and heavier, and his eyelids were getting heavier and heavier. But even so, he held Chen''s hand, not only not a little relaxed, but more and more tight... It was like there was really a strong adhesive. The sun was burning two people The heat wave in the air has a bloody smell, which makes people sick. Just when Chen Yu couldn''t break free and ye Chenyu was dragged half of her body out of the cliff A voice came. Chen Yu''s eyes suddenly brightened and there was no time to think. Qiao Rui couldn''t care about his injury. He pulled Ye Chenyu''s leg and dragged it back Then, the backup people gradually arrived. But for a moment, the moment of life and death seemed to be just a nightmare ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin sat in the hotel coffee shop, on the laptop in front of him, and from time to time came some random messages. The Bluetooth headset indicates that a call is in progress. "Qin Shao, the police have arrived..." "Withdraw!" Shi Shaoqin gently opened his beautiful lips, and his voice was calm to silence. "Yes!" Hidden in the mountains and forests, the staff of the Mo palace looked at Chen Yu and ye Chenyu who had been rescued from a distance with high-power glasses, took back their sight, "Qin Shao asked to withdraw." The man with a sniper gun nodded, quickly received the gun and left with the observer without any hesitation. Qin Shao checked the nearby terrain before and guessed about the confrontation between the police and Miao Lun. Although there is a slight deviation, the general direction is not wrong They quickly arrived here. Fortunately, they were able to kill Maide at the last minute and save Ye Chenyu. Darkness has its rules. Mo Gong helped the police this time. Shi Shaoqin is because of what star and Gu Beichen said If ye Chenyu comes back, Mo''er will be very happy. Shi Shaoqin hung up, took down his Bluetooth headset and looked out of the window In the sun without dirt, even if this place is so depressed that people can''t hide its enthusiasm in the sun. The police want to capture Matt alive. He knows the means of Interpol. Naturally, we can''t let macdow really be caught alive, or when ye Chenyu knows the trading partner of macdow. Mai de was shot with a cold arrow. On the one hand, he was to save Ye Chenyu On the other hand, it is to make the police feel that the recipient is the one who puts the cold arrow. Only in this way can the receiving party be "harassed" by the police. Recently, when it has converged, it can detect something and get rid of the relationship with the wind puppet group. After all, the world has white and black. Black and white always complement each other. No one can really eliminate all of them! And he just let Ye Chenyu survive. As for the rest... What does it have to do with him?! Shi Shaoqin took back his sight, closed his notebook, got up, and left the cafe with a steady step I haven''t seen star for nearly a month. I don''t know if the little guy really misses him, but he misses the little guy. The roar of the plane came over the ink sky, in the early morning sun Star was having breakfast, when suddenly there was an exciting spirit. The bright eyes of Blackstone suddenly stared up and gently stirred up the lower eyelashes. "What''s the matter?" Shi juechi looked at star and asked. Star didn''t answer, just wanted to get out of the chair. Qingqing was afraid that he would fall down and hurried forward to hold him falsely After star got off the ground, regardless of Shi Jue Chi''s confused eyes, he ran out with short legs. Shi juechi twisted her eyebrows and got up to follow her out "Jue Shao," Xiao Siyue came over at the right time and just saw that star had run out of the door, "Qin Shao is back." As soon as Shi Jue Chi heard it, she lowered her eyes and smiled, "I said how star seems to have come to spirit." After a pause, he wondered, "but how did star sense it?" Xiao Siyue smiled and walked out with Shi Jue Chi. "I heard that children are very sensitive to people around them. It''s that kind of natural magnetic field induction." "It''s like you have children..." Carney make complaints about his vomit. "Siyue reads more and knows more." The sample said to Carney foolishly. Carney squinted at the sample, felt Xiao Siyue look at him discontentedly, and immediately grinned pleasantly. "I think it''s too magical to understand... If we have children in the future, I guess I will understand... Ow!" Before Carney could speak, Xiao Siyue stepped on his foot "Ha ha, I told you to take advantage of Siyue!" The sample grinned. Kani glanced at the sample with dissatisfaction. Some prison guards Chapter 1107 Star took a small step and went all the way to the apron of Mo palace In the early morning sun, the little figure is very happy. Even on the ceramic face, there is also a sweet, soft smile, very happy "Stone..." The tender, soft and waxy voice echoed in the air under the laughter. When Shi Shaoqin got off the plane, he saw star with open arms and grinning at him from a distance. At that moment, in the sun, my heart was soft and unreasonable. And such a scene fell in the eyes of the people in the ink palace. It was so beautiful The beauty should not be the picture in the ink palace. The morning light, the sea wave light Shi Shaoqin is dressed in a white shirt, black casual suit pants, star is dressed in white short sleeves, light blue suspender shorts... One big and one small, soft and beautiful to unreal. "Stone..." When star was about to approach Shi Shaoqin, he shouted happily again. Shi Shaoqin squatted down and caught star''s body. At that moment, all fatigue seemed to be disappearing "How do you know I''m here?" Shi Shaoqin picked up star and asked softly. Star put his little arm around Shi Shaoqin and said with a small proud grin, "I just know..." Looking at star''s playful appearance, Shi Shaoqin''s sight became softer and softer. As he walked back with star in his arms, he asked about him these days. Even if Mingming said on the phone "Did stone bring me a present when he went out?" Asked star, flapping his eyelashes. "Yes." Star''s eyes lit up as soon as he heard it. In due time, one of the two people who had been following Shi Shaoqin handed star the wrapped gift box in his hand. "Young master!" Star took it and said with a smile, "thank you!" The man was obviously stunned, and then the cold expression on his face could see an unconscious smile under the crack. Star holds the gift box and opens it on the table It is a card made of leaves and veins of leaves after special treatment. Star couldn''t understand the gift and looked at Shi Shaoqin with a small pink mouth. Shi Shaoqin glanced at the card, then looked at star and said, "there is a large mountain forest where I go this time. These leaves are from there..." After a pause, Shi Shaoqin''s eyes became deep. "The gorgeous and lush appearance needs to be supported by a vein invisible to the naked eye... All high above, there must be a stable and solid foundation." Star frowned and looked as confused as listening to the book of heaven. "It doesn''t matter if you don''t understand now," Shi Shaoqin gently stroked star''s head, "just remember..." "Yes!" Star nodded, looked at the card, and silently remembered Shi Shaoqin''s words. This sentence is the first truth Shi Shaoqin gave star. It has also become an important foundation for the life of turning hands over clouds and covering hands with rain after star No one can take the efforts of the previous generation to pave the way of life. Only the big trees supported by themselves will not be destroyed! ¡­¡­ Time passes under the change of day and night Five days have passed since the collapse of the wind puppet group. Xie Qifeng has almost integrated the follow-up problems. The rescued children are basically reported by the local police according to the local missing persons. The bodies of the dead have also been returned first through exclusive channels. The injuries are almost moderate and the personnel are basically well recovered But now, the wind puppet group has disintegrated. Even if macdow can''t be captured alive, it should be a relief... But there is a dignified atmosphere everywhere. "Ah --" "Let go of me... Ah..." "Ah..." The roaring voice showed the collapse under despair, which tore the heart and lungs, and even lost calm. Chen Chen and others were either held by a bandage hanging from their arms or with gauze tied to their foreheads. They were badly injured one by one. In the closed room, there was a constant cry of tearing like a trapped animal. That cry, every time, struck deeply on the hearts of Chen Yu, Qiao Rui, Yang Jinyu, Lu Xiaowei and others. "Is there no way to make brother Yu more comfortable?" Lu Xiaowei''s eyes are red. Because he is a technician, he is the least injured among them. He looked at Chen Yu and others with red eyes and was about to cry It''s so hard to disintegrate the wind puppet group. If you finally exchange brother Yu''s future for it, what''s the matter?! "Brother Yu, hold on for a while, just for a while..." Qiao Rui also flushed his eyes. Listening to the scream inside, he almost said "if you can''t, give brother Yu an injection first". He stood on the wall for a long time, because he was dizzy. Chen Yu stared at the closed door and listened to the sharp cry inside without any expression. Footsteps came Chen Yu and others looked at the place where the voice came and saw that it was the local anti drug police. The leader looked at the room where ye Chenyu''s shrill cry came from and immediately showed his certificate to Chen. "We''ve heard about officer Ye. If you can, you''d better give him to us." "Why?" Chen Yu''s voice was cold. According to his job title, Chen Yu should be higher than the head of the anti drug police, but because he is not a region, he has little effect. "Officer Ye''s problem now is..." the anti drug policeman glanced at the closed door again. "It''s drug addiction." This problem doesn''t need him to say. Everyone knows it very well. "If he can quit, it''s OK. If he can''t quit..." "I can''t quit. Why?" Lu Xiaowei immediately blew his hair. The anti drug policeman frowned slightly, looked at Lu Xiaowei and said calmly, "none of us here can provide her with drugs. I think everyone is colleagues and should be very clear about what will happen later." "I won''t give people to you..." Chen Yu''s voice was calm. At this moment, ye Chenyu has "lost her calmness". She must not be influenced by her feelings. "Officer Chen, this is not appropriate..." the anti drug police were obviously embarrassed. "It''s not appropriate, not has the final say..." Chen''s eyes are cold. "Ye Chenyu is my boss in action. But now I''m acting, and I''m his boss." The DEA was silent. "Naturally, I want to quit drugs, but it''s definitely not with you..." Chen''s voice was indisputable. "I''ll ask the above for instructions and take ye Chenyu back to the drug rehabilitation center in Los Angeles." "Can you guarantee that he won''t attack on the way?" As soon as the anti drug policeman heard this, he immediately frowned and said, "if it happens on the way, according to my understanding of you, I''m afraid you can''t subdue him even if he is seriously injured... Besides, you are also injured!" Shua. Chen Yu''s eyes suddenly became sharp. "Uniform?" Chen Chen said coldly, "why should I subdue him? Is he a prisoner?" She gritted her teeth. "He fought on the front line and used his future and life to fight criminal groups. Can he only face such an end in the end?!" Chapter 1108 If questioned, Lu Xiaowei and others immediately became stiff. Chen Yu has a pair of beautiful apricot eyes, which are fierce under the heroic spirit. The anti drug policeman grinned, "officer Chen, I don''t mean that." "No? What''s that?" Chen Chen''s voice became colder. "Ye Chenyu was infected with the virus, not voluntarily, but for the task." She gritted her teeth. "Now, as colleagues and fellow combatants, we don''t even have the most basic awe?" The faces of the anti drug police were red and white, and their faces were extremely ugly. "Officer Chen, we also act according to the procedure..." the anti drug policeman frowned, "you protect your shortcomings like this..." "Yes, I''m just protecting my weaknesses. Do you have any opinion?" Chen Yu interrupted the anti drug police, "I''m not just protecting my weaknesses, but also feel sad." Grief and indignation filled the air with sadness, mixed with Ye Chenyu''s painful tearing cry, which was particularly painful. "Sitting in the office, I don''t know how hard front-line personnel are..." Chen Zhen only felt sad. "But as a border anti drug policeman, don''t you know?" The anti drug police looked at each other and felt ashamed. "Ye Chenyu is a good policeman. For every case, he is using his best ability to protect the people around him, to protect the safety of people''s property and life, and to try to subdue criminals..." Chen Yu''s nose was sour for a moment, and her tears were almost uncontrollable. "In this case, shouldn''t we try to accompany him out, rather than destroy his willpower by tough means, right?" The crowd was silent, and the atmosphere in the corridor was even more dignified. The chief anti drug policeman sighed deeply and said in a dignified voice: "officer Chen, officer Ye''s blood sample has been extracted, his drug addiction..." he paused, and his voice became more dignified, "it''s hard to solve." They came into contact with this piece. It must be a highly pure poison that can make them say "bad solution" in such a heavy way. Complex emotions flickered in the depths of Chen Yu''s eyes, and Qiao Rui and others were even more sad. They know too well what''s going on in rehab. I also fully understand how terrible the process was How many people can''t stand to start self mutilation? How many people finally fall short This is an abyss. If you go in, you can''t get out! "None of us can guarantee his situation on the way, officer Chen. Now it''s not what we have to do, but what we have to do!" Although at this moment, his words were inhumane. But starting from the facts, Chen and others have to admit "I''ll ask for instructions," Chen insisted. "At this moment, I won''t let you take him!" The leader pondered, thought and nodded. "OK, we can wait for your instructions..." Then he looked again at the room with a roar, and then signaled the people who followed him to leave first. "Sister Yu..." Yang Jinyu scarlet eyes, "there''s no other way?" "Anyway, I must take him to Los Angeles." Chen Yu sank his eyes, turned and walked out. Even if there are many difficulties on the way, she can''t leave Ye Chenyu in Yuecheng. Who knows if there is a tumor here that has been bribed? Put it here. She doesn''t feel at ease even if she''s with her Thinking, Chen Yu dialed Wang Qiang''s phone and said he wanted to bring ye Chenyu back to Los Angeles. "Xiaoyu, you should understand that the procedure is inconsistent." Wang Qiang''s face was also bad. "The rules are the rules. I''m also worried about Chenyu''s current situation, but I still have to get rid of drugs in Yuecheng first." "Then I''ll call Lu Bureau..." Chen didn''t give up at all. Wang Qiang sighed, "I just came from Lu Bureau, no!" "I don''t believe it. I can''t take ye Chenyu back..." Chen burst immediately and completely lost his calm in the past. "If I can''t take someone back, I Chen will write backwards!" "Doodle doodle..." The voice of rage fell and the phone was hung up. Wang Qiang listened to the hanging sound inside. He was stunned at first, then frowned and said, "why did he follow Chenyu for not many days, and Chen Yu''s temperament was biased?" Thinking, Wang Qiang had a cunning smile at the bottom of his eyes. He didn''t tell Gu Beichen about ye Chenyu''s situation Now he can''t get back from the normal procedure, nor can he find Gu Beichen in this seat. But Chen is different Wang Qiang heaved a sigh, hoping that Chen Yu would not forget the people who could "use" angrily at this time. Fortunately, Chen Yu''s Qi returned to Qi, but he was calm about ye Chenyu. After thinking for a while, she dialed Chen Qishan, "Dad, do you have Gu Beichen''s phone? Give me..." "Do you know how to call?" Chen Qishan didn''t listen to Chen Yu''s words at all. He yelled, "since you''re going to die, why don''t you just... Ah?!" Chen Chen took the mobile phone aside. The piercing sound almost pierced her eardrum. Chen Yu frowned and listened to Chen Qishan''s incoherent scolding on the phone from a distance. He couldn''t tell the taste in his heart. Chen Qishan scolded for more than ten minutes before he said angrily, "it''s really good. You have a task, and even I have used it... The task is over, and you just remember to call me today!" Chen Yu felt completely guilty. Before, it was because everyone was injured and unconscious, and then ye Chenyu was injected with poison She did ignore her family. "Dad..." There was a sudden silence on the other side of the phone. Then, Chen Qishan heard a choking voice, "smelly girl, you really didn''t let your father worry when you were young..." "I''m sorry..." Chen Yu reddened his eyes. "Never again." "How dare you have a future?" Chen Qishan immediately blew his beard and stared. Chen Yu''s eyes were red and he laughed at the imaginary appearance of Chen Qishan, "there''s no future..." Chen Qishan sighed heavily. No matter how angry he was, he couldn''t make his daughter feel comfortable when she was free. Chen Qishan began to nag on the phone. Without the composure that a group chairman should have, he was just a father who worried about his daughter and cared about his daughter What a pity! Chen Yu doesn''t have time to get warm with his father in "nagging" at the moment "Dad, if you want to scold me, let''s go back and talk about it." Chen Yu interrupted Chen Qishan, "well, give me Gu Beichen''s phone first. I have something urgent to find him..." "Point to you calling me today, or something?" Chen Qishan immediately raised his voice. Chen Yu pulled at the corners of his mouth and had a headache. "Chen Yu, I think your eyes are all others. You don''t need my father, your mother, brother and the Chen family..." Chen Qishan said angrily and didn''t hang up the phone. Chen Yu gritted his teeth and closed his eyes. Just as he wanted to dial again, there was a voice of SMS arrival. Open It''s from Chen Qishan. There is Gu Beichen''s phone and a sentence: when you come back, I''ll see if you coax me. I''ll ignore you! Chapter 1109 Chen Yu looked at Chen Qishan''s text message and his eyes became more red. The dense water mist at the bottom of his eyes blurred his eyes uncontrollably. She sniffed and replied to the text message: Thank you, Dad! I love you! Chen Qishan looked at the text message replied by Chen Yu. He was red eyed and sighed deeply. "It''s a good and comfortable day, but I have to live and die..." Chen Qishan dropped his hand and looked out. "I hope you can come back this time. If you can put down your heart knot, dad will have nothing to be angry about." "Didn''t you say you must be angry this time?" Xie Zhenru came from behind in a wheelchair. After the news of Chen Yu''s "death" before, both Chen Qishan and Xie Zhenru are obviously much older. Chen Qishan turned around and pushed Xie Zhenru. "This daughter, it''s too late to feel distressed. Where are you willing to be angry?" "You just have a hard mouth... Xie Zhenru said with a smile. "What can I do?" Chen Qishan sighed, "I just hope Xiao Dan can be more calm when he comes back this time. Don''t think about going to the front line all day?" "Didn''t Lao Lu say that? That''s what Medvedev did..." Xie Zhenru said. "Xiaoyu''s heart knot should also be opened." "In my opinion, what kind of criminal police should a girl be?" Chen Qishan sat down and looked at Xie Zhenru, "when you come back, look at the young talents and introduce them to her... When a girl has a home, she will be stable." "Yes." Xie Zhenru nodded and recognized, "Xiao Yu should also talk about love... Although it''s not big, it''s not small." "Yes!" Chen Qishan answered, and Xie Zhenru began to discuss the fate of Chen Yu in the future. Later, it was found that there was no particularly suitable one. Meng Yiyan was originally quite suitable, but unfortunately, the falling flower is deliberately ruthless Moreover, now that Meng Yiyan has talked about it, it is said that they are also suitable, but they can''t think any more. Xie Zhenru sighed, "I don''t know what kind of man can lower Xiaoyu..." "Anyway, I need to find a man for Xiao Yu." Chen Qishan has a firm face. It''s just that Chen Qishan didn''t think of it at the moment. The little lover of his last life added obstacles to his work, and even finding him a son-in-law did not satisfy him. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen received a call from Chen Yu and looked at the sun moving westward. "I don''t know how to calm down," but I don''t know "I''ll send someone to pick him up!" Gu Beichen said indifferently, "there is no accident. It will arrive around midnight." "Good!" Chen Ying Sheng. Gu Beichen hung up the phone and saw that there was no movement in the rest room in the office. Then he turned out of the office and went to Xiao Jing''s office. "Chen Shao, you keep staring at me like this. I''m a little square..." Xiao Jing looked up at the person who came in and continued to take the document approval. "Put down your work," Gu Beichen sat down opposite Xiao Jing. Seeing him look curiously, he opened his mouth, "go to Yuecheng and pick up Chenyu." "Isn''t it over there?" Xiao Jing was stunned. Gu Beichen''s expression was dignified. "Chenyu was injected with poison." "..." Xiao Jing felt a headache when he heard this, "isn''t Shi Shaoqin in the past? How can he still..." "I''m afraid madder didn''t believe it in the end." Gu Beichen gave Chen Yu''s mobile phone number to Xiao Jing. "You take Xiao Yu there. If there''s a chance on the road, you can take care of it." "Good!" Xiao Jing answered and immediately sent a text message to Xiao Yu, "I''ll prepare now." Gu Beichen nodded, got up with Xiao Jing and left the office "President Xiao, this document needs you to sign..." At the right time, Zhao Qianyu came over with the document. Seeing Xiao Jing, he hurried forward and said with a grin. "Give it to Chen Shao." Xiao Jing didn''t stop. He said as he crossed Zhao Qianyu and left with big steps. Zhao Qianyu blinked his eyes and couldn''t react. "Is this the turn over serf singing?" Zhao Qianyu looks at Xiao Jing, who is already pressing the elevator, and then looks at Gu Beichen. But when she looked up at Gu Beichen''s deep eagle eyes, she suddenly "clicked" in her heart and dared not treat Gu Beichen with the attitude of Xiao Jing. Zhao Qianyu solemnly handed the document to Gu Beichen. "Chen Shao, this is an emergency document and needs to be signed." "Yes." Gu Beichen took over indifferently, turned and walked to the office. Zhao Qianyu spat out his tongue and followed up Just when the arrival voice came from the elevator, she looked back at Xiao Jing''s back and wondered what had happened. When Xiao Jing and Xiao Yu arrived at Yuecheng, it was almost 12:00 p.m. and contacted Chen Yu. It was already 2:00 midnight when ye Chenyu, who had been struggling for a day and finally calmed down, took the private plane of the Dragon empire. When the flight came, the route was set up When Xiao Jing and they went to take ye Chenyu, the preparations for the return trip had been made. "I''ll go back with you..." Chen said. Xiao Jing frowned slightly, "this way..." "I told Qiao Rui that he would deal with it tomorrow." Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu who was asleep. "I don''t trust him." Xiao Jing''s eyes were deep and nodded. The cabin door closed and the plane left Yuecheng with the roar of taxiing down The flight time from Yuecheng to Los Angeles is three and a half hours. During this period, we can only hope that ye Chenyu''s drug addiction will not attack. Xiao Yu held a magic cube in his hand and turned it quickly. After a while, he aligned the colors of the six sides. Then disrupt, then align Every time, about a minute or two. Chen Yu doesn''t know who the man who has been playing the magic cube is. Since she came with Xiao Jing, she estimates that Gu Beichen is the one who can subdue Ye Chenyu just in case. As time goes by The plane has been flying for nearly two and a half hours. In the last hour, Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu and felt a little uneasy. Sure enough After another half an hour or so, ye Chenyu couldn''t stand the pain of the gradual onset of drug addiction and began to twitch. Then, ye Chenyu fell into a crazy loss again under the guidance of addictive hair. "We are about to reach our destination, Los Angeles... Please fasten your seat belt..." In the cabin, the captain''s prompt sound came at the right time. Xiao Jing and Xiao Yu looked at each other and sighed. Ye Chenyu doesn''t attack early or late... He has to wait until the plane is ready to descend to start the attack. After Xiao Fang wanted to put down the color, Xiao ran wanted to put it down again But before he came to the crazy Ye Chenyu, he saw Chen gritting his teeth and his eyes were cold When he heard a "bang", Chen Yu used great strength and directly hit Ye Chenyu on the back of his neck. Ye Chenyu, who was originally manic, blacked his eyes and fainted on the seat. Xiao Yu can''t laugh or cry. Xiao Jing took time to sit on the seat and said, "it''s really cruel..." Chapter 1110 Chen zhe lowered his lower lip and looked back at Xiao Jing. "The plane is about to land. Although he fainted, he can only restrain his addiction for a while, but it''s better than making him manic." Xiao Jing shrugged and raised his eyebrows without saying anything. Chen Yu frowned slightly. While wearing his seat belt, he asked, "do you have a better way?" Xiao Jing pulled the corners of his mouth and looked at Xiao Yu. Xiao Yu has returned to his seat and raised the needle in his hand. "Are you going to inject him with poison?" Chen Yu immediately stared and his face was full of unbelievable words. "Officer Chen, I don''t like to hear that..." Xiao jingpi said in a quiet voice with a smile. "The emperor is a serious company. How can it be poisonous?" Chen Yu immediately opened his mouth and felt that his words were inappropriate. "This is just something that can make addicts feel at ease for a while," Xiao Yu shrugged. "The purpose is the same as that of you, but..." he grinned. "Ye Chenyu will be more comfortable." "..." Chen Chen immediately frowned, "why didn''t you say this earlier?" "We didn''t expect that you had such great strength when you were injured..." Xiao Jing said slowly with a little ambiguous eyes on his innocent face. "The most important thing is that I didn''t expect you to be willing to... Give him such a heavy hand!" Chen Chen''s attitude towards Ye Chenyu, judging from the flight hours, Xiao Jing is sure... It is definitely not the concern and love among colleagues. Women can''t hide their feelings There are not many women who can cover up their feelings by paying less money to Fu chenshao! Chen Shuo''s mouth was silent. She understood Xiao Jing''s subtext and didn''t argue because she didn''t need it. La emperor group is the wind vane of business, and this wind vane is created by Gu Beichen''s cold-blooded wrist But in the emperor, it is Xiao Jing, who has a lot of rumors, from special assistant to vice president of the emperor, who can almost keep pace with Gu Beichen. It is rumored that this man not only didn''t let Gu Beichen doubt him, but even trusted him more and more Naturally, he has great ability. Chen Yu took a deep look at Xiao Jing and didn''t say anything to take back his sight. She looked at Ye Chenyu, who was stunned by her own palm, and her eyes crossed the pain under her heartache. The airport screen shows the altitude at which the plane began to descend Through the small window, you can already see the dawn rising in the East. Chen Yu looked at the morning light full of hope, hoping that ye Chenyu could get through it. ¡­¡­ "Ah Chen, what are you doing so early..." Jian Mo vaguely felt Gu Beichen''s figure in clothes, narrowed his eyes and asked. Gu Beichen came forward and gently kissed Jian Mo on his forehead. "There''s something to deal with. You need to sleep a little longer, huh?" Jane Mo opened her eyes, bleary eyed, and saw Gu Beichen smiling at him. Nodding, Jian Mo said, "I''m going to xiaxiangyu in the morning." "Well, I''ll call you when I''m finished. I''ll pick you up." Jane Mo nodded and gently "eh" in her nose. Her eyelids were heavy and fell asleep slowly Gu Beichen felt distressed. Jian Mo''s baby was too tossed. She didn''t sleep well, but she was very sleepy. Gently stroked Jian Mo''s scattered hair. Gu Beichen kissed Jian Mo at the corner of his mouth before he got up and left. Car, driving on the early morning road in Los Angeles The time is just approaching six o''clock, and the road is relatively clean. Gu Beichen drove the car all the way to the drug treatment center in Los Angeles. There was a trace of dignity on his cold, carved face. Although Ye Chenyu came back without permission, due to his identity, he had to go to the drug rehabilitation center for detoxification. In any case, even if he can really turn over the clouds and rain, ye Chenyu must give up this poison, both public and private. Otherwise, his life will be ruined It''s better to die! "Squeak -" The car''s tires rubbed the ground with a trace of cold, and stopped at the door of the drug treatment center. The guard at the door saw him and looked at him suspiciously. Gu Beichen got out of the car and walked over with steady steps "Gu Beichen, see your director." Gu Beichen reported to himself and spoke indifferently. The guard was stunned and then said, "Mr. Gu, please wait a moment." The guard called and grinned in his heart. Just now, Chen Bureau of the Eastern District came with Captain Ye of the special police team. It seems that Xiao Jing, the current deputy general manager of the emperor, is with him What happened? After the guard called, he pressed the switch. "Mr. Gu, you can go in." Gu Beichen nodded slightly and drove into the drug rehabilitation center. The drug rehabilitation center in Los Angeles is very large. As a metropolis, Los Angeles has a lot of rich people. Naturally, there are a lot of crazy people. Many people are addicted to drugs in order to find the stimulation of life or some games under hidden rules There is no shortage of high-class people who are famous and rich, and there is no shortage of stars who use "high pressure" to touch the bottom line. "General manager Gu," the director hurried to, "Captain Ye has been sent to a separate isolation area." "Yes." Gu Beichen responded indifferently. When Xiao Jing was asked to pick up Ye Chenyu last night, he had already said hello to the director. "Ye Chenyu''s situation is very not optimistic..." the director''s face is heavy, "because the purity is too high and he can''t resist that thing too much during the mission. Obviously, the other party prepared it for him very frequently..." Words, do not need to continue to say more. Since Mai de injected Ye Chenyu with high-purity virus, it was because he put down his suspicion. As long as ye Chenyu has a slight attack, he will send things to him If ye Chenyu resists and doesn''t even show the greed of drug addicts, it will only make Mai de more suspicious. More than ten days is enough to destroy a strong willed person! "Ah --" The sound of tearing heart and cracking lung came faintly. Gu Beichen stopped slowly, and the director also stopped with a dignified face. "I can''t stand it, I can''t stand it... Ah..." The voice of Ye Chenyu''s collapse came in pain, filled with despair. "Either give me an injection first, or shoot me directly..." Ye Chenyu stared scarlet at the man in front. His hands and feet were tied and fixed on an immovable chair made of steel. "Er..." The roaring voice came. Ye Chenyu wanted to struggle, completely ignoring the bound body. Because of friction, the previous gunshot wound burst again Chen Yu''s body was trembling, and his eyes were red. She clenched her mouth tightly and clenched her teeth She really wants to give him an injection first, at least let him not torture himself like this now. However, she knows better than anyone That will only make ye Chenyu more and more addictive. "Ye Chenyu, you''re a policeman, you can''t do this..." Chen zhe sobbed. "Have you forgotten your responsibility? Have you forgotten that you told me that you were born to be a policeman? Are you going to destroy yourself now..." Chapter 1111 Chen Chen''s question made Ye Chenyu a little quiet However, in a few seconds, his eyes became more and more red, and even his eyes became red. Not moved, but crazy under the edge of mania. Ye Chenyu trembled all over because he could not bear the unspeakable pain in his body. His appearance of pain was so decadent that people couldn''t bear it. When such a evil ruffian arrives, there is no one who can put it into the bottom of his eyes. Such a confident and capable person who does everything At this moment, because of poison, he completely lost himself and his proud ability. "Just give me an injection first, okay?" Ye Chenyu gasped, "at least, at least until I''m well... Right?" Chen Yu''s mouth trembled. She looked at Ye Chenyu, and her eyes were full of disbelief. "Do you look at me because of forbearance, the wound has been bad?" Ye Chenyu asked again, "I guess I''ve got rid of drugs, but my arm is useless..." Chen Shu''s lips trembled even more. Even when he wanted to speak, he couldn''t spit out a syllable because of trembling. Tears poured out. Looking at Ye Chenyu, Chen Yu felt that she was going to collapse. Obviously, this is the most common way for drug addicts to win sympathy and guilt around people But from ye Chenyu''s mouth, Chen Yu couldn''t accept it. Xiao Jing and Xiao Yu have been standing aside. They are like invisible people, looking at the "interaction" between Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu. Ye Chenyu has been looking at Chen Yu and lobbying Chen Yu clenched his hand. Xiao Jing looked at Chen Yu indifferently and wondered how she would react if ye Chenyu did this. In the end, women are emotional. Ye Chenyu is like this I''m afraid Chen has to be soft hearted?! "Ye Chenyu, you dream!" Chen Chen gritted his teeth and said in a trembling voice. Xiao Jing smiled at the corners of his mouth at the bottom of his eyes. Even Xiao Yu looked at Chen Yu. "Even if you lose your arm," Chen Zhen gritted her teeth and yelled, "even if you can''t survive and die..." she gasped heavily, "I won''t give you an injection." "Chen Yu, you can''t do this to me!" Ye Chenyu roared. Chen Chen also roared back, "I can''t give you an injection -" "Matt, I''m all for you. You can''t do this to me!" Something suddenly cracked on Chen Yu''s face Her eyes trembled and she was almost defeated by Ye Chenyu''s words! Tears gushed out of control. "Ye Chenyu, even if I want to live in your shadow all my life..." Chen sobbed. "Even if I want to feel guilty all my life... I won''t give you an injection, and I have to let you quit!" After gritting his teeth, Chen Yu sucked his nose, tried to pull back his sight on Ye Chenyu, and turned around He opened the door and strode out under Ye Chenyu''s crazy roar. Xiao Jing lowered his eyes and crossed his eyes with appreciation. Xiao Yu shrugged and turned away if it was none of his business In the closed space, only Ye Chenyu and his crazy cry were left. "Ah... Woo woo..." Chen Chen squatted on the ground, his arms around his legs, his face buried between his arms and knees, and burst into tears Gu Beichen stood not far away and looked at Chen Yu''s collapse with a deep sigh. He walked forward, looked at Ye Chenyu''s room, gently opened his thin lips and said slowly: "your practice is right..." Chen continued to cry, as if to vent the sadness accumulated in his body. "After crying, you will be strong." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes, "now, it''s you, not others, who can understand him and help him..." Chen zhe sobbed and looked up. The rising sun hit her face, and the glittering tears reflected the brilliant light. Gu Beichen looked up at her and said faintly, "his family and friends can''t see him like this." "Why?" Chen Yu got up and his nose was still sore. Gu Beichen looked down at the exhausted room and said, "whether it''s his mother or his brother he just met, do you think... He would like them to see him like this?" Ye Chenyu doesn''t care what he looks at on weekdays, but such a person cares too much about his family. Because he cares, he can''t let mother ye see him like this, let alone let Shaochen see him like this "But isn''t it easier for her to come out without the support of her family?" Chen Yu was at a loss, but his tears still fell instinctively. "Not everyone is like this." Gu Beichen takes back his sight and looks at Chen Yu again. At that moment, Chen Yu seemed to see something from his deep and bottomless sight. Can''t see, but it''s the driving force for ye Chenyu to support, isn''t it? "Mr. Gu," Chen zhe sniffed, wiped away the spilled tears and asked, "he......" she paused, "he is your little uncle''s child outside. Have you ever resented him?" Gu Beichen smiled and shook his head. "We have no right to comment on the feelings of the previous generation. Naturally, we have no right to drag an innocent person into unnecessary disputes, don''t we?" The rhetorical question made Chen Shu silent. "If I had resented, there would be no Ye Chenyu who can pull you out now, right?" Ask again, let Chen''s pupils enlarge. Also in an instant, she understood the meaning of Gu Beichen''s words. If ye Chenyu can pull her out, she should be able to do the same. Chen Yu smiled, even if it was ugly at the moment. "I can!" The firm voice, with the pride of not admitting defeat, belongs to Chen. Gu Beichen nodded, turned and walked outside "Don''t Gu look at him?" Chen asked. "I''ll arrange for the doctor to come and treat his wound," Gu Beichen kept walking. "Chen Chen, look forward to your results." Xiao Yichen and Gu Yishuang left together "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing asked anxiously, "Ye Chenyu is so chicken." He heaved a sigh. "Do you want to wait until he gets better?" "No." Gu Beichen said coldly, "this will only completely destroy him." "But..." Xiao Jing was worried. Ye Chenyu tossed himself like this, and his arm is likely to be useless. Gu Beichen stopped slowly, and his eyes fell in front. Gradually, it became as dark as an abyss. "Then find a way not to let him toss himself." Gu Beichen said with familiar eyes, "let Xiao Nan get some people to help." "I also think Chen Shao is the most suitable to do so." Xiao Yu tried to say, "Erjing, how can you become a vice president and become softhearted?" Xiao Jing ruthlessly gouged out his eyes, Xiao Yu, and took back his sight. Yes, I haven''t been wandering in the dark world for too long. I can''t see such a scene Gu Beichen glanced at Xiao Jing and didn''t speak. He just opened the door and got into the car. Immediately, he dialed Shi Shaoqin''s phone Chapter 1112 Shi Shaoqin was not surprised to see Gu Beichen''s phone. He glanced at star, who was making melon seeds in the distance, and then picked it up "I think you need to give me an explanation." Gu Beichen''s voice was cold. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly and smiled lightly, "Oh?" In the voice of light eh, there is a crazy ignorance. Gu Beichen''s cold face was full of haze, "why?" Shi Shaoqin took his pocket with one hand and looked at Star turning back and grinning at him. He also smiled at the little guy, "I only promise him to go back, I don''t promise anything else." The cold words formed a strong contrast with the warm smile on his face. "Injected with high-purity poison, is the situation worse now?" Gu Beichen Leng hum. Shi Shaoqin''s light smile gradually converged when star turned back and continued to play with melon seeds. "Maide will finally inject poison into Ye Chenyu, which can only show that the man is too suspicious." Gu Beichen snorted coldly. "Beichen, you call me now just to put the responsibility on me and get something..." Shi Shaoqin coldly pierced Gu Beichen''s mind. Gu Beichen sneered, "originally, you can make him don''t need to bear more, can''t you?" He didn''t say it clearly, but he knew very well that Shi Shaoqin understood what he meant. "I didn''t kill him. It''s good." Shi Shaoqin said coldly. Shi Shaoqin is a little gloomy. He never seems willing and doesn''t need to explain anything Gu Beichen rubbed his forehead, and his voice was a little tired. "I''ve just seen his situation. It''s very bad..." he glanced at the rising sun. "Mo''er''s tire is very hard." "..." Shi Shaoqin immediately frowned. "I don''t want to circle with you," Gu Beichen said. "You should know what I want." Shi Shaoqin really wanted to say that Gu Beichen''s "shameless" degree has made him despise. But it happened that this man was shameless last time, and this time he was more calm Shi Shaoqin coldly hung up the phone. He really didn''t want to say anything to Gu Beichen. If he did something he regretted in his life, he must have brought Gu Beichen to the Mo palace from Gu mohuai! Shi Shaoqin''s face was dark, and the sun could not disperse the haze on him. "Stone..." star shouted softly. Holding a handful of melon seeds just got from the sunflower plate in his small hand, he handed them to Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin took over and looked up at star and his flattering smile. He suddenly understood why he indulged Gu Beichen''s shameless face. He left star by his side and felt guilty all the time?! With a dark sigh, Shi Shaoqin looked at star and turned to get melon seeds again. His eyes became soft After watching Star for a while, Shi Shaoqin looked at the man standing nearby and said, "call Xi Cheng over." "Yes!" The man answered and left. After a while, Xi Cheng came in a hurry. "Take someone and send Gu Beichen a month''s dose of M-9." Shi Shaoqin spoke. Xi Cheng was a little stunned, "why?" Shi Shaoqin lifted his eyes lightly, and his long and narrow eyes shone cold light. Xi Cheng secretly grinned and pulled the corners of his mouth, "well, I''ll go now..." When the words fell, he quickly turned around, with a bitter gourd look on his face. He just didn''t take a few steps. He subconsciously looked back at Shi Shaoqin and looked puzzled M-9 is a drug to suppress the onset of drug addiction in the body, and people will fall into deep sleep... What does Gu Beichen want that thing for? ¡­¡­ Yue law firm. Li Xiaoyue ate the lunch brought by Mo Shaochen and made by mother Ye herself. He asked suspiciously, "didn''t you say that the case at the border was probably the work of Ye Chenyu?" "Well, guess." Mo Shaochen said. Li Xiaoyue stopped. "Hasn''t he come back yet?" Mo Shaochen frowned slightly and shook his head. "The case has been exposed for several days..." Li Xiaoyue hesitated. "If it''s really his task, how should he come back?!" "Why, miss him?" Mo Shaochen asked deliberately. Li Xiaoyue nodded seriously She saw Mo Shaochen frown and grinned, "your brother is also my brother. Do you think there is a problem with your brother?" Mo Shaochen immediately drooped his eyes and smiled helplessly. He couldn''t express his joy at Li Xiaoyue''s deliberately teasing him. "Hey..." Li Xiaoyue suddenly sighed. "What''s the matter?" Li Xiaoyue put his hand on his chin and said, "aunt, now you and I can ''worry about it'', which has more or less diverted our attention... I''m afraid it was difficult for Aunt Ye Chenyu to work in the past." "Yes." Mo Shaochen answered, "so I used to be diligent during this period of time." It''s always better for people to think and divert their attention. After dinner with Li Xiaoyue, Mo Shaochen left Yue law firm. He was a little restless all the way to his law firm. Looking at the time, Mo Shaochen called Gu Beichen. "Where is it?" Asked Mo Shaochen. "Company." "I went to find you..." Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually deepened, "good." Mo Shaochen hung up and turned to the emperor group. On the way to the top floor, Mo Shaochen went to Gu Beichen''s office. When entering, Gu Beichen was peeling apples for Jian mo After saying hello to Mo Shaochen, Jian Mo took Gu Beichen''s cut apple and got up, "I''ll go down to Shen Chu to talk about the design direction, and you can talk..." After Jian Mo left, Mo Shaochen asked, "I came to ask about Chenyu." When saying this, Mo Shaochen''s eyes were tightly fixed on Gu Beichen. Although it is clear that if this person wants to hide, he can''t expect to find out anything "The task is not over yet," Gu Beichen said calmly. "I just asked in the morning. Chenyu is a serial task. The first one is over and the second one is only beginning." And the second one is detoxification! Gu Beichen didn''t lie and didn''t deliberately hide anything. Mo Shaochen has no doubt about him, but to some extent, he knows Gu Beichen very well as a cousin. "Beichen," Mo Shaochen paused, "is something wrong with Chenyu?" "Why do you ask?" Gu Beichen frowned slightly. Mo Shaochen shook his head. "I don''t know. It''s just a feeling." Gu Beichen smiled, "as a brother, when I had an accident, I didn''t see what you felt..." With a little teasing, it cleverly diverted Mo Shaochen''s attention. "Is this the difference between pro and watch?" Gu Beichen leaned slowly on the sofa and looked at Mo Shaochen with deep eyes. Mo Shaochen smiled helplessly, "now with Jane Mo, you like to joke more and more." Gu beichenjun also waved a smile on his face, but it was very light and light. Timely, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone vibrated He took it out calmly and frowned slightly when he saw the call. It was Chen Yu who called Chapter 1113 Gu Beichen answered the phone indifferently, "huh?" "President Gu, is there really no problem for ye Chenyu to go on like this?" Chen Yu''s voice was a little broken. "The wound just sewed up is cracked again." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. He didn''t think about such a result. Chen Chen bit her lip. "The person who went to pick us up was with Vice President Xiao..." she sucked her nose, held back her inner sadness and said, "is there any medicine in his hand that can make ye Chenyu calm down temporarily?" Chen Yu is hoping for something, although she knows it''s not a long-term plan. "That can only last for one or two hours at most..." Gu Beichen was still indifferent, and his voice was watertight. Mo Shaochen on one side didn''t know what he was talking about. "However, I can''t see him maiming himself like this..." Chen closed his eyes and choked back the suddenly dense water mist. Gu Beichen was silent, and his slender fingers gently knocked on his legs After a while, he said slowly, "let''s deal with it first. I''ll go there tomorrow at the latest." Chen Yu opened his mouth and wanted to say something. Finally, he held back and answered with a choking voice, "OK!" After hanging up the phone, Chen Shu lowered his eyes and bit his lips in time. He held back the weakness and sadness he had never had before, took a deep breath and pressed down the weakness of the fundus of his eyes, and turned to the drug treatment room. ¡­¡­ Mo Shaochen looked a little deeper. He always felt something was wrong, but he didn''t know where. "There''s news about Chenyu. Remember to tell me." Mo Shaochen said and got up, "I''ll go to the law firm first." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered. Mo Shaochen took back his sight and walked out until he got into the elevator. He felt an unspeakable feeling. Is he too sensitive or something? Mo Shaochen silently pressed down the downward number and looked at the gradually narrowed line of sight because the elevator door was closed. His eyebrows tightened up "Ding" came, and Mo Shaochen subconsciously looked at the numbers. At the right time, the elevator door opens and a sound is heard "I had a rest yesterday and Xiao Jing wasn''t there." Jane Mo said, "ah Chen said he went to pick up people from other places." "Who will you pick up? I want him to go in person..." Shen Chu said, "it''s not easy to get Xiao Jing for use now." "I didn''t ask." Jane Mo said, and then lifted her step after the elevator door opened, "eh, Shaochen?" She was slightly surprised, "leaving so soon?" Shen Chu looked at Mo Shaochen and smiled calmly, saying hello. Put down Gu Beichen, as if there was nothing embarrassing for Mo Shaochen. Now Shen Chu has completely given up the past and has the wonderful life of his own Of course, if she gets rid of the plague God she provokes, she thinks she will be more wonderful! "There''s still something going on at the law firm." Mo Shaochen replied, "are you going out?" "Go to the dessert shop opposite to buy some dessert and milk tea..." Jane Mo said with a smile. Three people chatted in the elevator. Soon, the elevator reached the first floor. "I''ll go first. Pay attention..." Mo Shaochen glanced at Jian Mo''s belly as he said. Jane Mo smiled, stroked her lower abdomen and nodded, "necessary!" "Well, I''ll go first." Mo Shaochen said, nodded with Shen Chu, turned and walked to the car. However, at the moment of turning around, Jane Mo''s words before entering the elevator echoed in her mind It seemed that this was a breakthrough point of some problem, but he couldn''t figure out where to break through for a moment. "Why, when someone gets married, you feel regret that you didn''t catch it?" Jian Mo said deliberately when she saw Shen Chu looking at Mo Shaochen. "I don''t want any of your men. I still think of other people''s men!" Shen Chu tilted his eyes at Jian Mo and walked to the dessert shop opposite with her, "I just think Shaochen is a little strange!" "Yes?" Jane Mo frowned, "I didn''t notice..." "When it comes to your baby, what can you notice?" Shen began to make complaints about his eyes. Jane Mo immediately raised the corner of her mouth with a proud face, "that''s why a woman who doesn''t even have a man can''t feel the feeling of a pregnant mother." "..." Shen Chu twitched at the corners of his mouth, and his arrogance of smiling and not laughing, "yes, you have men and children, and you are the winner of life." Jane Mo immediately laughed and took Shen Chu''s arm and stepped into the dessert shop with happy steps. Compared with the ease of Jian Mo and Shen Chu, the single person area of the drug treatment center is filled with and heavy pressure. Ye Chenyu is "self mutilating" and has been addicted to hair for many days, which makes him realize that he can''t be independent and can only be controlled. At this moment, he saw that everyone was full of hatred. His sadness is not seen by anyone. It''s like the whole world is his enemy. It''s better for him to live than to die "Chen Chen, do you know that the last person I want to see now is you!" Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth and his eyes showed fierce light. Chen Chen secretly clenched his teeth, clenched his hand and smiled coldly at the corners of his mouth. "Unfortunately, you can''t see anyone except me now." "Er..." Ye Chenyu made a low roar in his throat. Chen Chen gritted his teeth and said heavily, "or do you not want to see me, do you want to see your mother?" She saw a strange emotion across the bottom of Ye Chenyu''s eyes and continued ruthlessly, "or do you want Mo Shaochen to see you?" "Ah -" Ye Chenyu trembled when Chen Zhen stimulated him. Chen swallowed hard and swallowed all the sadness and pain like a blade. Lingchi''s whole nerve was bleeding "Let the younger brother you care about and have just met come to see what you look like now..." Chen also blushed. "Let them see what ye Chenyu, who doesn''t care about anything, looks like now!" The roaring voice was cruel and ruthless. Chen Yu can clearly see ye Chenyu''s despair. She has no choice She doesn''t want to stimulate him with his most important person! But what can I do? Compared with letting him stick to it, even if she did this villain, she wouldn''t hesitate. His nose was so sour that he put his fingernails into the flesh of his palm to bear it. "Ye Chenyu, you''re a coward..." Chen Chen gritted his teeth and squeezed out the gap between his teeth word by word. "When you say me, it''s up to you?" Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth and his breath was fluffy. He was clearly on the edge of madness, but it seemed that there was a force that made him endure. "What can''t survive?" Chen Yu''s lips began to tremble. "Can''t you really get through it?" A rhetorical question, a question, showing the cruelty under the teeth. "You didn''t endure such pain. How do you know my pain -" Ye Chenyu finally couldn''t resist the mania in his body and roared sharply. "Do you want me to feel it so that you can work hard?" Chen Chen also roared wildly. Ye Chenyu stared and breathed more and more heavily. The gunshot wound on his arm had been torn again because of his struggle. The bright red blood stabbed Chen Yu''s eyes and pierced her heart like a blood sword. Chen Yu suddenly took out a needle tube. She stared at Ye Chenyu, gritted her teeth and said, "Ye Chenyu, if you feel bad, I''ll accompany you next to..." The voice of grief was resolute, and Chen took a deep breath, "if you think you can work hard only if I feel with you!" Chen Yu said, holding up the needle and stabbing himself on the arm Chapter 1114 "Stop --" Ye Chenyu suddenly roared with a sharp voice under panic. The tip of the needle stopped less than two centimeters from Chen Yu''s arm. She clenched her teeth and looked at Ye Chenyu. "Didn''t you say that I can''t feel your pain? Then I''ll accompany you!" "Chen Chen, are you crazy?" Ye Chenyu yelled at Chen Yu. "Yes, I''m crazy!" Chen Yu, unwilling to show weakness, roared back, "Ye Chenyu, if you can''t endure, then I''ll accompany you..." Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu with scarlet eyes. At that moment, the complex emotion in his eyes was unclear to anyone. "On the edge of the cliff," Chen Yu couldn''t help crying again. "At that time, in addition to the gunshot wound, in fact, you also had a drug addiction, didn''t you?" Ye Chenyu gasped. At this moment, he instinctively endured the pain in his body. Chen Yu''s tears fell down. After that year uncle Lin died in front of her, she seemed to forget to cry. She bled and never shed tears during training. Everyone admired her strength, but no one knew that she was just afraid of her cowardice But in front of Ye Chenyu, it seemed as if she had become fragile from the beginning. Inexplicably Whether it''s telling your "secret", acting, or being shocked and moved by him. Until now, she looked at such a fragile as if ye Chenyu was going to be destroyed at any time. She was sad and couldn''t help herself. "But then, you didn''t give up on me..." Chen Yu cried and said. "You are even joking with me and diverting my attention. I hope I can hold on for a while... Even for a while!" "But what about you now?" "You tell me, after you instilled all your beliefs in others, did you leave some for yourself -" The sound of collapse and pain is on the verge of madness. Chen Chen''s hand holding the needle trembled, "Ye Chenyu, you gave me Chen Chen''s rebirth, and you saved my life... If you can''t control yourself because of addiction, I''ll accompany you." Ye Chenyu had a touch of panic at the bottom of his eyes. "Don''t you like to think of others? Can''t you see others degenerate? Because of you, if I degenerate, can you wake up?" A series of questions showed no retreat under the confrontation. Chen Yu held the needle tighter and tighter. Looking at Ye Chenyu''s manic appearance, he slowly raised his hand again She looked at Ye Chenyu without blinking. At that moment, as long as he couldn''t bear it, she started in front of him. Is it cruel? Chen Yu didn''t know whether he was cruel to Ye Chenyu or to himself. However, she clearly knows what she is doing "Ye Chenyu, is this really what you want to see?" With the sadness of pleading and the tears of helplessness. "For the task, the news that I was'' dead ''came back. My father lost his head almost overnight and my mother almost collapsed." Chen Yu said cruelly, "because of you, I walked out of the shadow of Maide, but I have to bear the pain caused by the poison like you... This is the last thing you want to see?" Chen Yu smiled, "Ye Chenyu, who was arrogant when he first met me, wouldn''t do this..." She sniffed, "Ye Chenyu, who broke my stubborn strength in the field of evil ruffians, won''t do that." "That..." Chen Chen gritted his teeth. "I don''t know when I fell in love with Ye Chenyu, and I won''t do that!" As she spoke, she slowly dropped her hand and put the tip of the needle on her arm again. If she suffers, she will bear it together without hesitation The knock of "bang bang" came at the right time. Outside, the staff of the drug treatment center beat the iron door hard. "Chen Ju, you''re crazy..." the man outside shouted, "did you take the poison test agent from the laboratory?" "Chen Ju, don''t be silly. This is not a joke..." "Chen Ju, you are joking about your future... Open the door!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± There were angry voices outside. If ye Chenyu had just suspected that Chen Yu was just bluffing him, he didn''t dare to doubt at the moment. "Chen Chen, what do you want?" Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth and endured the uncomfortable roar of thousands of insects and ants in his body. "Don''t you know what I want?" Chen Chen roared at Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu felt unbearable, and the cruel light in his eyes was mixed with the pain under repression. The tip of a needle has even touched a small groove. Just push a little further and the tip of the needle will poke into the cortex "Chen Yu, stop..." Ye Chenyu''s eyes became scarlet, and the whole person was full of hostility. "Can you bear it?" Chen Yu asked sternly. Ye Chenyu closed his eyes and didn''t speak. At the moment when he opened his eyes, Chen Yu sent the tip of the needle forward again Ye Chenyu was shocked, "I can bear it, I can bear it... I can bear it!" The crazy voice showed anxiety. Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu''s action to push the needle tube, and his face was surprised. "Chen Chen, I said, I can bear it, you stop --" The roar stopped Chen''s movement. "Are you lying to me or are you serious?" Chen Yu did not pull out the needle tube. Ye Chenyu is already suffering. The changes in this period are only a few minutes, but he seems to have endured it for half a century. But as Chen Yu thought, ye Chenyu''s character is too concerned about others With her cruelty to herself, she will be able to force him, even for a while. "I''m serious!" Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth, "but I don''t guarantee how long I can endure..." Chen said, "I can always swallow with you when I open my eyes and choke again!" Ye Chenyu has a layer of water mist at the bottom of his eyes. I don''t know whether it''s because it''s too uncomfortable and out of control, or because of Chen Yu Chen Yu sucks her nose. At the moment, she has no time to be sad. She opened the door, ignoring the action of those people rushing to take the needle tube from her hand, she just called the doctor Gu Beichen found and treated the wound on Ye Chenyu''s arm again. Chen Yu leaned powerlessly against the wall outside, and the whole person was like taking out his soul. "Chen Ju, you really scared us to death..." the people in the detoxification center looked at the liquid in the needle tube. "It''s been a long time. There''s water in it." Chen Yu took out the injection in the laboratory from his pocket and handed it to them. He pulled the corners of his mouth astringently, "I''m not so stupid." She lowered her eyes. "If I were like him, I''m afraid I wouldn''t face it together, but wait to die together." The people in the drug treatment center breathed out secretly, and looked at Chen Yu, who was clearly facing collapse, and their hearts were filled with admiration one by one. At this time, her head can be sober. It is no accident that she became the regional deputy bureau at such a young age. "Chen Ju, it''s still useful for you to come here today to deal with the Ye team..." the person in the detoxification center frowned anxiously. "But he can''t stand it later. I''m afraid he won''t be able to do it again." Chen Yu was silent, and his body leaning against the wall became weaker and weaker She didn''t know what to do next, but she knew that her coercion would gradually lose its effect on Ye Chenyu. Now, she can only hope Gu Beichen can think of a way. At least let Ye Chenyu''s body be able to bear it, and in a state of tolerance... Quit drug addiction! Chapter 1115 The gears of the plane rub against the ground and echo in the wide boundary Xi Cheng got off the plane with a silver suitcase, looked around and called Gu Beichen. "I''m in the terminal!" Gu Beichen spoke. Xi Cheng turned his mouth and felt a little depressed about Gu Beichen''s almost the same indifference as Shi Shaoqin. VIP lounge. Gu Beichen is reading a magazine. There is a report on the recent cooperation between Xiangyu and the emperor. The main designers are Jian Mo and Shen Chu. Naturally, the media have to add some topics of "what we have to say in those years". Footsteps came, and Gu Beichen looked up indifferently. See Xi Cheng and an expressionless man came over, he just looked across Xi Cheng and calmly landed on his suitcase. "This is given to you by Qin shaorang," Xi Cheng said. "The living body should be refrigerated within two hours." Gu Beichen got up, took the suitcase and wanted to leave. "Chen Shao..." Xi Cheng looked at Gu Beichen and kindly reminded, "in this world, there is no special medicine to deal with that thing, only boil... Can''t survive, and the result is only one of the degenerate people." He doesn''t know who is around Gu Beichen. He needs M-9 to curb drug addiction. If he uses M-9, the dose will never be light. "Moreover, with M-9 suppression, when you wake up, you will only erupt the accumulated." Xi Cheng reminds me again. Gu Beichen paused and took a look at Xi Cheng. He didn''t say anything. He took back his sight and walked out with big steps Xi Cheng shrugged. "It''s rude." He murmured, "not at all star cute..." A small voice, full of discontent. If Gu Beichen hadn''t been in a hurry and the news that a flight was about to board came from the timely broadcast, maybe... He could hear something. In this world, there is a little thing that is always inadvertently missed by yourself. Gu Beichen walked all the way to the parking lot Before the man reached the car, he saw Mo Shaochen coming in his direction. "Beichen?" Mo Shaochen frowned slightly and glanced at the suitcase in Beichen''s hand. "Are you..." "Come and get something." Gu Beichen didn''t say much, "are you going out?" Mo Shaochen nodded. "There is a temporary case abroad. I want to go there. It''s ten days and a half months fast, and it may take longer if it''s slow." "Yes." "Chenyu is back. Tell me first." Mo Shaochen said uneasily. Yesterday, he always felt something was wrong, but after returning to the law firm, he was delayed by this temporary case and had no time to think deeply. "When he comes back from his mission, he will call you first." Gu Beichen''s voice was still calm. Mo Shaochen''s face was slightly dignified, but he didn''t say anything more. After greeting Gu Beichen, he went to the waiting hall. Gu Beichen almost raced all the way to the drug rehabilitation center. It''s a short drive from the airport to the other side. Shi Shaoqin will not send the M-9 for the second time because of his "shameless". "Dr. Qin Huachen has sent me a call......". "Send it to the refrigerator first." Gu Beichen gives the box in his hand to doctor Qin. Doctor Qin didn''t dare to delay, so he hurried to refrigerate the medicine with two assistants. At the right time, Chen Yu came out with bad spirit Some people don''t cry too much these two days, because they don''t have too much rest. "President Gu..." Chen Yu saw Gu Beichen coming, his eyes shining, and hurried forward. But when she went directly into the sun from the dark, her eyes suddenly hurt badly. With the sound of "well", Chen Yu stopped and closed his eyes. At the same time, he felt a long "buzzing" in his head, and the whole person almost fell down without support. Fortunately, Gu Beichen helped quickly. After a while, the dizziness decreased slightly. Chen Yu slowly opened his eyes, and his whole face had turned very white. "You are also hurt. You can''t take care of yourself. How can you take care of him?" Gu Beichen''s voice was slightly heavy. Chen Yu nodded with drooping eyes, a little like a child who had made a mistake. After a few seconds, she looked up at Gu Beichen, "Chen Shao, I''m worried about his injury..." "I found someone to get some medicine..." Gu Beichen said, and ye Chenyu''s voice came abruptly. He frowned slightly and looked to where the voice came from. Chen Yu said with a strained face: "yesterday I used some extraordinary means to make him endure for a while, but only for a while..." she took a deep breath. "I just knocked him unconscious. I woke up in less than half an hour." Chen Yu''s words were completely astringent. Gu Beichen took back his sight. "That medicine can keep him quiet for a month. It is estimated that the injury will be almost cured." "Then his drug addiction..." "He can only rely on himself." Gu Beichen''s voice was a little heavy. Chen Shuo lips, nodded. She didn''t expect anything to control her addiction. If she did, the drug treatment center would have been easy. Now she just asks Ye Chenyu not to torture herself when her wound is not good. A month is neither long nor short. It''s a time to live peacefully day after day, and it''s also a time when a lot of things can happen. For example It''s late summer. The weather in Los Angeles is cool in the morning and evening, less impetuous in midsummer. Jane Mo''s stomach is also very obvious. The whole person is full of the charm of pregnant women. It''s very charming J came back from Tibet and blacked for several times. He was baptized by the sacred region... Well, he is still the proud computer genius. Mo Shaochen''s case ended a week ago, but Li Xiaoyue''s father was suddenly hospitalized. The two flew from two places The tour concert of Jian Jie and Su Junli also ended and came back to prepare for the registration of primary school. CEN Lanxi and Gu Moyuan now have more hobbies. After visiting a baby goods store, they are infatuated with that feeling, go shopping every three or five times, and then move a pile of things back ¡­¡­ Qiao Rui and others also returned from Yuecheng in the afternoon of the day Gu Beichen sent the medicine back A month, very quiet. At least for ye Chenyu, who has been falling into M-9 sleep, time is just a sleep. The only difference is that everyone''s injuries are almost all right "What?" Chen Qishan listened to Chen Yu''s words and then stared again. "You''ve only been back for more than 20 days, still with an injury... It''s not easy and good. You tell me you''re going out again these two days?" "I won''t leave Los Angeles," Chen said. He was less stubborn and more patient with his family. "I just need closed training." "Can''t you stop?" Chen Qishan gritted his teeth. "I''ve been training abroad for several years. I''m just out of the task. I''m well hurt. You train again. Why do you train so much?" Chen Chen is tired of being around Chen Qishan, circling his arm and leaning his head on his shoulder. "Dad, training is for my next task... I can come back!" Her eyes turned sad, but the corners of her mouth showed her daughter''s coquettish smile, "or do you not want me to come back next time?" In a word, choking Chen Qishan couldn''t say anything. Chen Yu looked up and gently fanned his beautiful apricot eyes, "this is just training, there is no danger..." Chen Qishan sighed deeply. No matter how reluctant he was, he endured it. When Xiao Yu came back, everyone didn''t say, but why didn''t he know about his daughter? She is unhappy. With a forced smile to cover up the sadness, let them see the heartache. "Training has a holiday. Remember to come back for dinner." Chen Qishan said dully. Chen Yu nodded and his nose was sour But before she could "appease" Chen Qishan, her phone rang. Yes, when he saw that it was the phone of the drug treatment center, Chen''s whole nerve tightened up Chapter 1116 Chen quickly answered the phone, "hello?" "Chen Ju, ye Chenyu suddenly woke up and couldn''t cure it..." there was an anxious voice on the phone, "come here quickly." "I''ll be right over." Chen Yu said that he had got up and left in a hurry. He even forgot to say something to Chen Qishan. Chen Qishan sat where he was, his face already dark. This daughter, this is more and more do not pay attention to him. Chen Yu drove all the way to the drug treatment center. Fortunately, Chen''s villa is not very far from there But even so, Chen Chen still sucked the alarm in the car to the roof, opened the alarm, and went all the way to the drug treatment center without obstruction, plus speeding. When the talent arrives at the single person area, he hears the sharp sound of "Ping Ping Ping". "How could he smash something?" Chen asked subconsciously. "It is estimated that it will take at least two days to wake up," the person in the drug treatment center said hurriedly, "but who knows that he suddenly woke up and some medical instruments inside didn''t have time to evacuate..." Chen Yu frowned. "The most important thing is, I didn''t expect that team ye had an attack as soon as he woke up. A doctor assistant in it almost didn''t break his arm by him..." "I''ll go in and have a look..." Chen Jianing said with a heavy face. "Chen Ju, you''d better not go in first." The man hurriedly dragged Chen Yu, "wait for the Ye team to pass this time." "Then he may have hurt himself." Chen Yu said coldly, twitching his wrists and hurried to the separate room. Police stood at the door and Dr. Qin. The sound of smashing things can be heard all the time Chen Chen looked through the small window and said solemnly, "is there any way to make him quiet temporarily? He must be transferred first." "I can only use tranquilizers, but I can''t..." Dr. Qin said. "Tell me how and where to call?" Doctor Qin didn''t know what Chen Yu was going to do, but hurried to say something about it. Chen Yu took the medicine and hurried away. After a while, she had a special gun in her hand. At the sight of the guard, the corners of their mouths twitched. Chen Chen was fully prepared. There was an injection gun in the car. "But where to call?" Dr. Qin looked around and frowned slightly. People who are afraid of drug addicts will smash the Explorer window. It''s a special glass that can''t be smashed. Chen Yu sank his eyes slightly, looked at Ye Chenyu with more and more sharp eyes, and turned to the ventilation row When the injection was injected into Ye Chenyu''s body, after a while, his eyes darkened and he fell to the ground. Time is pressing. No one knows when a person with strong self-awareness like Ye Chenyu will wake up. We can''t clean up, so we can only move him to another room and quickly fix him on a special chair. All this just took half an hour, and ye Chenyu woke up "Er..." Ye Chenyu shouted, "let me go, Chen Yu, let me go!" The injuries on Ye Chenyu''s body have been almost healed. In addition, during his coma, he used all the top muscle regeneration drugs, and the scab on his body is probably better. Although such struggle will still cause the wound to rupture, it will not be very serious. "Ye Chenyu, there is no room for maneuver this time. You can only quit!" After a month''s adjustment, Chen Yu is fierce. If it was the collapse of emotion at the beginning, Chen Yu now has an iron heart. The addicts accumulated in the body for a month sleep under the suppression of M-9. Once they wake up, they will burst out immediately. Although Gu Beichen didn''t say much to Chen, she estimated it these days. "Just roar here. If you''re tired of roaring, you''ll stop..." Chen Chen gritted his teeth, coldly took back his sight, turned and left the room. Ye Chenyu didn''t seem to think that Chen would do this. His whole eyes were scarlet and screamed "Chen Yu, you can''t do this to me!" "Chen Yu, let me go..." "Chen Yu, you cruel woman, I owe you so much..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Everyone looked at each other and looked at Chen Yu leaning against the wall by the door, one by one with a heavy heart. The days that have been quiet for a month seem to be disturbed again with Ye Chenyu''s awakening It''s just that people are speculating. This time, will Chen Yu collapse like last time. the second day. Mo Shaochen pushed the luggage car to the airport parking lot with Li Xiaoyue. "Auntie, let me go first." Li Xiaoyue said. "Well, I finished the follow-up work and went to dinner in the evening." Mo Shaochen nodded with a smile. "OK." Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue got into their cars respectively. One went to mother ye and the other went back to the law firm to deal with the case filing. After four o''clock in the afternoon, the sun had moved west and was lost by rows of high-rise buildings. Mo Shaochen picked up his mobile phone, thought about it, and dialed Ye Chenyu''s mobile phone. Still off. For a month after he left, he dialed almost once a day, but he didn''t pass. Mo Shaochen put down his mobile phone and looked at the processed files with deep eyes Gradually, something turns in my mind, and things I can''t think of before I leave seem to suddenly have a little eyebrow. Mo Shaochen took his mobile phone and called Gu Beichen, "I''m back. Xiao Yue''s parents brought some things to Jian Mo, and I''ll send them." "In the company, I''ll go out later." Gu Beichen replied, "go back to the manor for dinner tomorrow." "Well, good." Mo Shaochen answered and hung up without saying more. Then he got up and left the law firm and went to the Emperor Group Before they arrived, they saw Gu Beichen''s car coming out of the underground parking lot. Mo Shaochen didn''t know what he was thinking, but instinctively followed him far away. To a fork in the road. He stopped at the side of the road and looked at Gu Beichen''s direction, gradually frowning. Thanks to the criminal defense lawyer, Mo Shaochen is very familiar with the Los Angeles police system. This direction Plus the mystery he doubts but can''t solve. It seemed that I got the answer in an instant. At the end of the front is the largest and most well-equipped drug rehabilitation center in Los Angeles. If Xiao Jing had suddenly left to pick up Chenyu who was "infected" with the drug, would all this be connected in series?! Don''t worry about what you want in an instant. When he started the car again, Mo Shaochen just drove at a speed of 60 miles. The closer he got to the rehab center, the more nervous he became and even resisted. He must be wishful thinking The car stopped at the door of the drug treatment center. Through the switch, Mo Shaochen saw Gu Beichen''s car. Closing his eyes, he resisted more and more, but it seemed that the answer was clearer and clearer. Mo Shaochen bit his teeth, opened his eyes and got out of the car. Because of his identity and professional characteristics, it is not difficult for him to enter the drug rehabilitation center. "Where is Ye Chenyu?" Mo Shaochen pretended to ask about the case information and asked, "I need to ask him something about his last action for the court session." Chapter 1117 "Mo argued that if you ask him about the case, I''m afraid there''s no way at this moment..." Mo Shaochen frowned in an instant. He was surprised and didn''t know how to react. Seeing Mo Shaochen''s appearance, the people in the drug treatment center thought that they were in trouble because they couldn''t ask about the case. There was no doubt about him. "He just woke up yesterday. From then on... There are few times when he can calm down." The man sighed. Mo Shaochen tried his best to suppress the emotion that almost gushed out of his heart, so he pretended to be calm and said, "can you take me over first?" Many people here are already familiar with Mo Shaochen. As soon as ye Chenyu woke up, he came over. He thought it should be notified by the police station. He didn''t think much at all. He didn''t come here for the so-called court. "OK." The man nodded, turned around and took Mo Shaochen to the place where ye Chenyu was closed. With every step of walking, Mo Shaochen felt his footsteps were heavy and powerful. When he heard the "Er" sound and roared like a beast, Mo Shaochen only felt that his nerves were suddenly raised. He stopped and looked at where the voice came from He couldn''t see anything, but he was very sure that it was sent by Ye Chenyu. "Oh, I forgot. Ten minutes before you came, President Gu also came... But now the person is with the director." The people in the drug treatment center also stopped, "if team ye can''t pass this, I''m afraid this person will..." Finally, he didn''t say the word "waste", but just looked sorry. They are all people on the system, because the task is so sad. Mo Shaochen didn''t listen to what the man continued to say, but dragged his legs that seemed to be filled with lead in an instant, and approached the sound step by step Roaring voice, sharp curse, mixed with the voice of women about to collapse. Then came the chaotic voice Even, Mo Shaochen could feel that the air became condensed in an instant, making people unable to breathe. "Ye Chenyu, let go of the Chen Bureau..." someone shouted in horror, "do you know that if there is something wrong with the Chen Bureau, there is really no room for recovery." "Give me an injection, give me an injection!" Ye Chenyu''s uncomfortable sight has become illusory. From waking up yesterday to today, he endured great pain. It was as if something was gnawing at his flesh in his body, which made him miserable. "You dream!" Chen Chen gritted his teeth, "Ye Chenyu, if you have the ability, strangle me!" "Chen Chen, do you think I dare not?" "I bet you don''t dare --" Chen Yu also roared back. Just now, she just let Ye Chenyu break free by carelessness, and caught her at the same time. However, this time she has been determined. If ye Chenyu can''t come out, she will accompany him! Instead of destroying herself, she would rather he left a reputation At least his mother can be proud of him, at least his discerning lawyer brother can be proud of him! "Ye Chenyu, you can torture yourself, but you just can''t treat others..." Chen Chen gritted his teeth. "You are born to live for others." Ye Chenyu''s head is becoming more and more unreal because of his addiction to hair. In my mind, I was buzzing The people in the detoxification center were nervously persuading him. Listening to Chen Chen still yelling at him with words that irritated Ye Chenyu, his anxious face changed. He kept winking at Chen, but Chen didn''t respond at all. "Since you were born to live for others, why don''t you think about your mother and your brother now?" Chen Yu asked fiercely. Ye Chenyu''s arms around Chen''s neck are gradually tightened uncontrollably. Chen''s breathing is not smooth and he bites his teeth Of course she doesn''t really care about herself. As the people in the drug rehabilitation center said, if ye Chenyu did something to her, it would really beep the dog! Chen Yu has been scolded in her heart. She, the daughter of a rich family, has scolded more dirty words than she has ever said in her life. "Ye Chenyu, you are a coward. Your faith is a fart now!" Chen Yu grabbed Ye Chenyu''s arm, and his face turned a little white because of his poor breathing. "Shut up, shut up..." Ye Chenyu was angered by Chen Yu. In a moment of loosening, Chen Shu twisted Ye Chenyu''s arm and turned it over I don''t know whether ye Chenyu lost his basic vigilance because of his addiction to hair or was angered by Chen Yu. Originally, it was impossible for Chen to subdue him, but she controlled him at this moment. As soon as the people in the drug treatment center saw it, they dared not delay and hurriedly but methodically fixed Ye Chenyu on a special stool. "Ah... Let me go..." "Er..." "Let go of me --" The sharp roar echoed in the space. Chen Yu gasped, touched his neck and swallowed hard. "Let go of you and stop dreaming." Chen Chen gritted his teeth. "Ah --" Chen Yu''s eyes were full of hatred. Now his injury has almost healed. Chen Yu knows that as long as she can be cruel, ye Chenyu will be able to survive this level. Listen to the roar of tearing heart and lungs, and look at Ye Chenyu who has lost the evil ruffian and doesn''t care about anything. At that moment, Mo Shaochen almost thought his eyes were dazzled and even hallucinated. It''s not that he hasn''t been in contact with addicts, nor that he hasn''t seen people who are crazy because of detoxification But those people, it''s none of their business, isn''t it?! In addition to sympathy, there is only helplessness. This moment is different! The person in front of him is not only a friend he admires, but also his half brother. Is Ye Chenyu, who is willing to quit and even silently cares for him for him, really the person in front of him? Mo Shaochen, with the roar of Ye Chenyu, felt more distressed than ever. He didn''t know how to describe the mood at this moment. He just felt that he was suffocated in a moment. Footsteps, unconsciously walked forward a few times, but it was heavy as if dragged by a kilogram. "Don''t argue..." the people in the drug rehabilitation center shouted. Mo Shaochen didn''t hear it. At the moment, in his ears, only Ye Chenyu''s painful cry, only his sharp appearance... Finally turned into heartache. "How could this happen?" Mo Shaochen asked foolishly. One side was injected with a high dose of poison, and the purity of the other side was also very high Mo Shaochen looked at the speaker with trembling lips. In another sharp cry of Ye Chenyu, he looked at him again "Chen Chen, if you have the ability, let me go. Let me see if I''ll kill you..." Ye Chenyu shouted, "you have to make my life worse than death, don''t you?!" Chen Chen''s chest rose and fell because of her big breath. Her face also became ferocious. She clenched her teeth and replied, "yes! I just want to see that your life is better than death... If you have the ability, you can bear it for me and don''t let me see it." The two people in the room scolded each other. For people outside, they were used to it. Mo Shaochen even trembled at his temples. He walked to the door numbly and wanted to see more clearly "You..." Ye Chenyu just wanted to scold Chen Yu. Suddenly, his eyes fell on Mo Shaochen at the door In an instant, his pupils expanded as if he had seen a ghost. "Ah..." Ye Chenyu screamed with tears. He wanted to hide, but he had no place to hide when he was tied. He could only hang his head left and right, and his mouth was incoherent "Let go of me, let go of me... Close the door, close the door!" Chapter 1118 Chen Yu felt something wrong with Ye Chenyu and looked back When he saw Mo Shaochen standing at the door, he stared uncontrollably. Why is he here? After a touch of surprise at the bottom of Chen''s eyes, he looked at Ye Chenyu and saw that he had no mania just now However, he was filled with the feeling of wanting to die. Gu Beichen said that the last person Ye Chenyu wants to see is mo Shaochen! "Close the door, close the door..." Ye Chenyu seemed to realize that he had no place to hide. He shouted at Chen Yu, "close the door!" Chen Yu subconsciously ''Oh'', turned around and hurriedly asked someone to take Mo Shaochen away "Why don''t you want to see me?" Mo Shaochen''s nose is very sour. When he asked this, he gave himself the answer. He didn''t leave, and even walked towards Ye Chenyu step by step He could not seem to see ye Chenyu''s hesitation and fear, nor could he see his resistance and surprise. In this way, close step by step. Not only let Ye Chenyu feel him, he can also feel Ye Chenyu. "Ah..." Ye Chenyu roared and stared at Mo Shaochen''s approach. His body instinctively shrank back, and his posture fell into Chen Yu''s eyes, knowing that he wanted to avoid. "Mo Shaochen, can you leave first?" Chen Yu''s face was begging. She didn''t want to see ye Chenyu like this. Inferiority! The only word she can find for ye Chenyu at the moment As an illegitimate child, he was finally recognized by his brother. But before he can get along well, his brother will see him like this... He can''t face it? Otherwise, Gu Beichen will not specifically say. Mo Shaochen didn''t hear Chen Yu''s words, but continued to move heavily. Chen Chen gritted his teeth and grabbed Mo Shaochen. "Let go of me..." Mo Shaochen suddenly roared, and vigorously shook off Chen Yu. The people in the drug treatment center were stunned one by one. Their good temper on weekdays didn''t seem to have too many emotions. When were they so manic?! Chen Yu was thrown away by Mo Shaochen and forgot to react for a moment. Mo Shaochen looked at Ye Chenyu. "What are you hiding from? You don''t want to see me, do you?" The question was sneered at. At this moment, ye Chenyu "forgot" the pain in his body and just wanted to avoid it. "If you really don''t want to see me, don''t approach me intentionally or unintentionally..." Mo Shaochen still sneered, "you approached me, let me guess our relationship, and now resist me?" Ye Chenyu clenched his teeth tightly and tried to restrain his physical discomfort. This seemed to be his only belief at this moment. He didn''t want to become sharp in front of Mo Shaochen "Do you know I''m worried?" Mo Shaochen''s nose has become uncontrollably sour. "Do you know, I guess what task you have. I think you should come back, but if you don''t come back, you will think nonsense every day?" Mo Shaochen laughed at himself, "a big court, Xiao Yue''s father is in hospital... Obviously, there are many things, but I will call you almost every day, thinking whether it will be through?" Ye Chenyu''s body began to tremble uncontrollably because of forbearance "Finally?" Mo Shaochen gritted his teeth and asked at the same time that his eyes turned red, "what''s waiting is that I''m going to take care of my cocoon. I guess something may have happened to you. What''s waiting is that you don''t want to see me!" At the same time when the accusation came, Mo Shaochen''s eyes were already filled with thick mist. Since childhood, I have no "relatives" and depend on others. It''s not easy to know that he still has a relative, but he has been hurt and can''t survive this level Mo Shaochen really doesn''t know what sadness should look like? Must I be sad about Shen Chu? Is it sad to lose your parents in a moment? Or is it sad to see Gu Beichen, the sunshine boy, become a cruel man? He really doesn''t know At this moment, he just knew that he was very sad. Too sad to contain their emotions. He is a lawyer. The most important thing is to lose his cool But now, fuck what? Calm down! "Ye Chenyu, you are a coward..." Mo Shaochen gritted his teeth. Tears had filled his eyes and blurred Ye Chenyu''s figure. "You only think about yourself. Have you ever thought about your aunt? Have you ever thought about me? Do you remember your promise to me?!" The questioning made Ye Chenyu tremble more fiercely Mo Shaochen, meanwhile, completely lost his composure and burst into tears. "What can''t make it, ye Chenyu... You can''t make it, because we are not enough in your mind, and it''s not worth your effort!" The roaring voice is full of sadness. "What do you know, what do you know?" Ye Chenyu finally broke out. The pain in his body made him unable to contain, and some were just unbearable under the collapse. "Just because you are too important, I don''t want to see you..." "Then quit!" "It''s easy for you to say. It''s easy for you to say. I want to, but I can''t..." "You can''t do it, you just don''t want to do it!" "You shut up --" "What?" Mo Shaochen gritted his teeth and stared, "I said, so you dare not face it?" "You didn''t catch it, you can''t understand..." Ye Chenyu gnashed his teeth. "I''d rather die!" "Pa!" A heavy slap, with all the strength of Mo Shaochen, waved on Ye Chenyu''s face The world seemed to be quiet for an instant, and even the air forgot to circulate. Chen Yu''s heart was trembling. Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu roared back and forth, and every sentence pierced her heart like a needle Gu Beichen, accompanied by the director, has also come. Seeing the scene in front of them, they looked bright and clear. "Xiao Yue and I are still waiting for you to prove our marriage. Elder brother is like father... Are you going to do this to me?" Mo Shaochen asked, gritting his teeth. Ye Chenyu gasped heavily. His eyes stared without blinking. Even when his face was hit sideways, he didn''t move, as if he were frozen there. "You want to use your death to make me an orphan without relatives again, don''t you?" Mo Shaochen asked sadly, "if so, why did you give me joy?" Ye Chenyu turned his eyes slowly and rigidly. The burning pain on his face was not as good as that in his body But now he is quiet. "Shaochen..." Ye Chenyu shouted stiffly. "For many years, I haven''t spent the new year with my relatives..." Mo Shaochen said with red eyes. "I told Xiao Yue that day that I have relatives now. I can spend the new year with a brother named Ye Chenyu and eat the dishes cooked by my aunt..." "With her, you and home, I no longer listen to the gunfire. I stand alone in front of the window and am placed in an empty room." "Brother..." Mo Shaochen shouted, which shocked Ye Chenyu''s heart. "Just try to make it through in order to fulfill my wish... Can you?" Chapter 1119 Breath, because Mo Shaochen''s questions are more dignified. Chen Yu even forgot to breathe nervously I don''t know how long it took. It''s only a moment, but everyone seems to have passed a century Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth, red eyes, looked at Mo Shaochen and nodded. The room was filled with the cries of Mo Shaochen holding Ye Chenyu and the collapse of their emotions. Men are not without tears, nor without pain Chen Yu stood aside, covering his mouth and crying. No matter how long Ye Chenyu''s promise can last, as long as there is a glimmer of hope, it can make her happy. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu deeply At first, he was wrong. He understood Chen Yu''s idea too well, but ignored the need to "fight poison with poison". Shaochen''s "brother" completely suppressed Ye Chenyu''s manic mood and gathered his super willpower Chen Chen leaned against the wall, looked up slightly and looked at the incandescent lamp. Gradually, his eyes became blurred. Mo Shaochen is answering the phone. Gu Beichen looks out with his hands in his pockets. The door has been closed, only Ye Chenyu is inside Because of torture, his uncontrollable roar kept overflowing. But the difference is that he is no longer controlled by drug addiction and hates everyone, but is trying to restrain it. "Don''t tell Chenyu''s mother." Gu Beichen spoke faintly. "I know..." Mo Shaochen answered, and his whole expression was never sad. Gu Beichen glanced at him. "Chenyu cares about you very much. Don''t say it, just don''t want to embarrass him." "I understand." Gu Beichen looked back. "Now that he knows, I hope he can stick to it because of you this time." "I''ll make him stick to it." Mo Shaochen took a deep breath, "I also believe that he will be able to stick to it." In a word, there is firm faith and trust. In the following days, Mo Shaochen and Chen Yu accompanied Ye Chenyu in the drug rehabilitation center every day. He was sad and they accompanied him. He collapsed madly, and they encouraged They were distressed by his forbearance and exhaustion Day after day, only the parties know what the pain is like. Only Chen Yu and Mo Shaochen understand what ye Chenyu''s pain is. "Shaochen, you need to bring food. Why don''t I cook something else for you?" Mother ye said, "noodles are easy to lump. You can''t eat them later." "Auntie, no, I love the noodles made by you." Mo Shaochen said with a smile. Li Xiaoyue always felt that Mo Shaochen was a little strange these days, but based on her trust in each other and the space between each other as a lawyer, she didn''t ask much. "Aunt, he likes to eat, so let him pack it." Li Xiaoyue took the lunch box, "anyway, it''s the same when you get into your stomach." As soon as mother ye heard this, she looked at Li Xiaoyue angrily and said, "you two know to make me happy one day." Watching Li Xiaoyue chatting with his mother ye, Mo Shaochen looked a little deeper. Aunt didn''t say, but there was no news of Chenyu for so long. I''m afraid she was worried and couldn''t help herself?! Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes, silently took another food box and filled some cold dishes. After sending Li Xiaoyue home, Mo Shaochen went to the drug rehabilitation center with the food of "overtime". After a week of restraint, ye Chenyu''s addiction has obviously decreased a lot. It took less than half an hour to attack from the beginning. Now it can take three or five hours to feel uncomfortable. But I can endure it with great strength and can also endure it. Ye Chenyu was a little bitter after eating the stewed noodles and cold dishes with familiar taste. "Is mom okay?" Ye Chenyu asked. "Anyway, you often go out of work and don''t go home. My aunt is used to waiting and worrying." Mo Shaochen said somewhat unhappily. Ye Chenyu looked haggard at Mo Shaochen, took back his sight and continued to eat. Mo Shaochen was angry when he saw him like this, "can''t you express a few words?" "What do you mean? I can''t go back in the near future anyway..." Ye Chenyu said with noodles in his mouth. Mo Shaochen shook his head reluctantly and looked at the silent Chen, "are you going to report back to the Bureau tomorrow?" "Yes." Chen Ying answered gently. At the same time, ye Chenyu obviously stopped eating slightly, but he just continued to eat in an instant. "Important people come to Los Angeles for a visit, and the eastern district is in charge... I''ll go back and arrange the deployment." Chen Yu said, looking uncontrollably at Ye Chenyu. Such a task, if placed as usual, must be deployed by her, and ye Chenyu cooperates. There was an unspeakable taste in his heart, and the corners of Chen''s mouth fell. Sometimes women agree with her, too. Obviously, ye Chenyu is developing in a good direction, but his heart is uncontrolled loss. Chen Yu knows why he is lost. Ye Chenyu''s efforts to control drug addiction are due to Mo Shaochen, not her. That''s because Mo Shaochen is an important person to him and can''t give up And she has no weight for him. Chen Yu laughed at himself It was just a mission together and played a play about "love". Chen Chen, why do you want more? Mo Shaochen didn''t ignore the self mockery across Chen''s face, "will you be busy next?" "Well, it''s estimated that the protection task is not over, and I can''t come..." Chen said, looking at Ye Chenyu uncontrollably. Ye Chenyu had been eating, and seemed to have no reaction to her words and gaze. Chen Yu felt more and more lost, but her arrogance made her try to pull the corners of her mouth to hide her inner vulnerability. "Ye Chenyu, I hope I can use you next time." Chen Yu spoke calmly. Ye Chenyu stopped and looked at Chen Yu. "Are you a leader or something?" Chen Yu frowned slightly and was asked by Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu took back his sight and continued to eat, "wait until I can''t go back to the Swat..." "What do you mean?" "Are you leaving the Swat?" Chen Yu and Mo Shaochen asked almost in one voice. One was stunned and the other was pleasantly surprised. For Chen Chen, ye Chenyu was born to be in the police force without any reason. For Mo Shaochen, being a policeman, especially Ye Chenyu, is really too dangerous. It''s good to leave early The two men looked straight at Ye Chenyu and waited for his answer. But he continued to eat quietly, completely ignoring the two people. Chen Yu and Mo Shaochen didn''t ask again. No matter what decision Ye Chenyu made after this time, it seems that both of them can understand Ye Chenyu stood in front of the window and looked at Chen''s back as he left. He gradually deepened his sight. "Are you really going to leave?" Mo Shaochen also looked at Chen through the window, "or do you want to stay away from her?" Chapter 1120 Ye Chenyu frowned slightly and looked at Mo Shaochen. Mo Shaochen leaned against the window with his arms around his chest and said with a smile: "it''s very beautiful, bold and cruel... Well, I feel I can hold you down." Ye Chenyu took back his sight and ignored Mo Shaochen''s turn. "Hey, don''t be shy..." Mo Shaochen joked. Ye Chenyu stopped, turned and looked at Mo Shaochen. "When did you see me shy?" "Oh, I guess I''m wrong." Mo Shaochen held back his smile, "it''s just that there''s a sign of becoming angry..." Looking at Ye Chenyu''s dark face, Mo Shaochen continued: "I''m your immediate boss. If I really want to be right, I''ll make her unhappy at home, and she can make you uncomfortable at work." Ye Chenyu didn''t want to discuss this issue with Mo Shaochen. He went to bed and planned to go to bed. Recently, he is really tired because he has survived the hard time of addiction. "Except for the sleeping time..." Mo Shaochen didn''t move. He simply lowered his eyes and began to calculate, "how to calculate? There are more working hours." Ye Chenyu had a headache. When he looked at Mo Shaochen, he said calmly, "if you press it when you sleep, a woman can''t turn over!" "Oh..." After turning 18 corners, the voice was ambiguous. Mo Shaochen looked at Ye Chenyu with a smile, and there was obvious teasing at the bottom of his eyes, "so, you are pressing her mind!" "..." Ye Chenyu''s headache became more and more serious. Why didn''t he know that the serious Mo Shaochen would make such a dirty joke?! Close your eyes, ye Chenyu didn''t speak. However, when his eyes closed, he was cold and passed Chen''s shadow He remembered what he said and did to her during those hard days. That kind of self is expected, but that kind of Chen Yu Ye Chenyu slowly opened his eyes and his vision fell on the roof. It seemed calm, but it was secretly complex to surge. Chen Yu didn''t think of that, and even used his usual caution machine It''s definitely not poison in the needle that threatened him. Thinking, ye Chenyu took back his sight and smiled faintly at the corners of his mouth. "What are you doing? When someone else is there, he likes to pay attention to it or not. When he leaves, he thinks about it?" Mo Shaochen poured a glass of water, sat down and drank. Ye Chenyu looked at Mo Shaochen, "you run here these days, Xiao Yue has no doubt." "No doubt it''s false," Mo Shaochen shrugged. "But who makes us special for each other''s careers?" "Has the wedding time been fixed?" Asked Ye Chenyu, looking out of the window. It''s the end of summer. Will autumn be slow? "Isn''t this waiting for you?" Mo Shaochen looked helpless, but he was obviously teasing. Ye Chenyu took back his sight and looked at Mo Shaochen Suddenly, the two brothers laughed. Time, in the implementation of Chen Yu''s protection of important figures, ye Chenyu continued to curb drug addiction in the past In the twinkling of an eye, Chen Yu and ye Chenyu haven''t seen each other for four days. Ye Chenyu also became addicted from three or five hours before to almost not attack for a day. "The person who can get rid of the drug treatment team is the one who can get rid of the drug treatment team," said Ye Xiaoli. "But the one who can get rid of the drug treatment team is the one who can get rid of the drug treatment team tomorrow." The man heaved a long sigh. "Seriously, I''ve never seen a person with such a big addiction quit." Ye Chenyu''s addiction is definitely worse than that of many people. After all, it''s a highly purified poison. As ye Chenyu shaved his beard, he looked at the man talking to himself in the mirror. A smile crossed his eyes, showing evil ruffians. Even if a person with iron will meets poison, he can make you a pool of mud. He is no exception. However, he can''t let go of too much. If the people who care about him force him, he can only force himself. Can be reborn Ye Chenyu looked at himself in the mirror and inadvertently crossed his mind. Chen Yu almost collapsed because of his sharp face. "Hey, in fact, some people in the drug rehabilitation center were framed to get infected..." the man looked helpless. "At first, he was helpless, but in the end, he could hold on, or there were too few people no longer trapped." Ye Chenyu put down his razor and looked at himself in the mirror I''ve lost a lot of weight. I look so pale that I''ve been well fed these days. Turning around, ye Chenyu packed up his things and said, "I can only say that the helplessness at the beginning can''t equal the emptiness of the body and the joy of enjoying for a time." Poison can make people hallucinate. People who have tried will miss those who have experienced a little setback and unhappiness. I always think I can quit for the first time and naturally for the second time. But I forget that the first time it depends on perseverance, and the second time it consumes Until later, I became used to it and didn''t care. Ye Chenyu stopped his movement and looked at the dark night outside. He fainted and dyed a dim yellow light, and gradually deepened his sight. "It seems that Chen Bureau hasn''t come here recently?" The man suddenly said thoughtfully. Ye Chenyu frowned slightly and looked at the man helplessly. "Are you thirsty?" Ye Chenyu asked calmly. "OK..." the man was stunned. "Drink some water." Ye Chenyu motioned the man to pour himself, "I feel you are thirsty." The man grinned and thought it was Ye Chenyu who wanted to drink. He turned and poured two glasses of water... There was no response to Ye Chenyu''s subtext. the second day. The weather in Los Angeles is a little overcast, and the air is slightly wet. Los Angeles International Airport, VVIP access has been blocked. The blockade was not cleared until an important person left by special plane. "Emma, I''m finally gone. If I don''t go again, I''ll be crazy..." Qiao Rui muttered and looked at the time. "It''s time to pick up brother Yu." Chen Yu looked at Qiao Rui. This time she took the lead and the SWAT team did the whole protection task. "Sister Yu, I''ll be your car." Qiao Rui said and wanted to pull Chen Yu''s door. When he came back from the mission, Qiao Rui was used to calling Chen Chen "sister Chen" as long as it was not a formal occasion. In addition to Ye Chenyu''s affairs, Qiao Rui has actually treated Chen Yu as his sister-in-law "Why?" Chen Yu frowned. "They go back, let''s pick up brother Yu!" Qiao Rui answered subconsciously. "I''m going back to the Bureau." Qiao Rui looked stunned. "Aren''t you going to pick up brother Yu?" "Don''t you think I need to go back and make a report?" Chen Yu asked. Qiao Rui was stunned. It''s right to think about it. In the end, Chen Yu is the person in charge of this time. Although there are no accidents in the whole process, he also has to go back to the general administration to make a report. "In the evening, everyone in the team gets together. The place is fixed. I''ll call you." Qiao Rui closed the front passenger''s door again. "He must be going home today..." Chen opened the door, didn''t say much, started the car and left. Looking at the car that had gone, Qiao Rui was a little confused. "So cold?" Qiao Rui frowned, "what''s the situation?!" Chapter 1121 Qiao Rui finally vacates a car from the SWAT team and goes to the drug rehabilitation center alone. When he arrived, Gu Beichen and Mo Shaochen were there. Gu Beichen was talking to the director. Seeing the dog leg of the director, Qiao Rui felt that 80% of the emperor wanted to contribute to the cause of drug rehabilitation. For example, how much is allocated every year! "Brother Yu..." Qiao Rui shouted from a distance. Qiao Rui''s heart jumped with joy when he saw that he had shaved his beard and became the familiar Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu glanced over and inadvertently looked behind Qiao Rui. Empty Ye Chenyu felt that he was a little lost! "Not on a mission?" Ye Chenyu asked deliberately. "I left this morning and just came to pick you up." Qiao Rui and Mo Shaochen waved, saying hello. Mo Shaochen copied his pocket with both hands, "are you alone?" His question was obviously ambiguous. Qiao Rui is not stupid. Besides, he came out of the incident. He looked at Ye Chenyu, "sister Yu is going back to make a report." After a pause, "let''s get together in the evening. Sister Yu and Xiao Wei come." "I''m going home in the evening." Ye Chenyu took out a cigarette and lit it. "I''ll go..." Qiao Rui laughed. "I told sister Yu to get together at night. She didn''t want to, so she said you were going home." With that, Qiao Rui flirted vaguely. "It''s been three months since I left the mission. Shouldn''t I go home first?" Ye Chenyu said calmly, "put away your little thoughts." Qiao Rui grinned, "brother Yu, how can I stay with you longer than my sister? I didn''t expect you to go home tonight..." The implication is clear. Chen Yu knows what you think?! "Because you are a man!" Ye Chenyu''s words fell. Seeing that Gu Beichen had finished talking with the director, he turned and walked over. "What does this have to do with being a man?" Qiao Rui doesn''t understand now. Mo Shaochen came up to him and said in a low voice, "he means that men don''t have women''s mind, so Chen can think of him going home first. You can''t think of it." "Really?" "The most important thing is that he is correcting you... Telling you that he and Chen have no heart to heart." Qiao Rui twitched at the corner of his mouth. Mo Shaochen asked, "you''ve been with Chenyu for so long. Do you think you know him?" Qiao Rui nodded, "although you can''t say you know all about it, it''s still OK!" "Well, let me ask you... What''s his general reaction if you used to joke with him and Chen?" Qiao Rui thought, "follow my words and continue to joke!" "Oh..." Mo Shaochen nodded suddenly. Seeing him like this, Qiao Rui immediately stared, slightly opened his mouth, pointed to Ye Chenyu''s back... Some excited and couldn''t speak. "Mo Bian means..." "Only those who have ghosts in their hearts will do acts that are inconsistent with their usual behavior." Mo Shaochen said calmly, "of course, you can also say that he is introverted because of recent changes." With a puff, Qiao Rui immediately laughed. "Don''t argue, I''d rather believe that brother Yu is uncomfortable when he sees that sister Yu hasn''t come." Mo Shaochen nodded, "children can teach!" In due time, ye Chenyu said hello to the director, and they left the drug rehabilitation center together Qiao Rui has to go back to the special police team. After leaving the door, several people separated. Ye Chenyu turned on his mobile phone and called his mother "Mom, I''m back." Mother Ye was silent at first, and then said softly, "I''ll wait to buy vegetables." There is no blame or even complaint, but only heartache. Since ye Chenyu "left" the police academy, mother Ye seems to have been "used" to it. He often disappears without any news, and then suddenly appears. "OK," replied Ye Chenyu, "Beichen and Shaochen will come together later." "Xiaomo and Xiaoyue are coming..." mother Ye just saw Li Xiaoyue and Jian Mo get off at the door of the villa through the window and turned to open the door. Seeing that Jane Mo and Li Xiaoyue were carrying large and small bags in their hands, mother Ye hurriedly said, "I''ll pick up things. Slow down on your way back." "Yes." Hearing Ye Chenyu''s response, mother Ye hung up and hurried to pick up Jane Mo''s things. "Carrying so many things..." mother Ye complained, "this belly is so big, so be careful." "Not so pretentious." Jane Mo said with a smile, "thinking of Chenyu coming back, you have to buy vegetables... Xiao Yue and I just went to buy them and brought them over." Mother Ye pursed her mouth and smiled, which was different from her usual happiness. Obviously, there was an easy smile on her face. Because ye Chenyu came back, the three women chatted happily and worked in the kitchen. ¡­¡­ After reporting the protection task to the General Administration, Chen Yu drove back to the east district police station. After making a cup of coffee, standing in front of the office window and looking at the people in and out, Chen Yu gradually lost his mind "Dong Dong!" "Come in." Chen Yu turned around and saw Lu Xiaowei come in. "Chen Bureau, this is the summary of the cases in our district this quarter..." Lu Xiaowei put down the file bag. "It''s time for dinner. Do you want to eat together?" "I can''t go down." "Then I''ll bring you some by the way?" "Yes." Lu Xiaowei nodded and turned to leave. But I just moved and stopped "By the way, what does brother Yu say?" Lu Xiaowei asked. Chen Chen put down his coffee cup. "Further research is needed. It is estimated that the overall meeting next Monday will produce results." Lu Xiaowei nodded, moved his lower lip, wanted to express something, and finally swallowed it reluctantly. "I''ll go down first..." "Yes!" Chen Yu took the case sent by Lu Xiaowei and opened it I don''t know if it''s a coincidence or something. The first one is a case of gathering people in a nightclub. Looking at the photos pasted with the seized drug samples, Chen Yu was out of control and was full of the shadow of Ye Chenyu. "You are a p to him. Calm down." Chen Yu murmured in self disdain, sighed deeply, restrained his mind and continued to look at the summary of the case. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen and their parents left one after another after having lunch with mother Ye. Ye Chenyu leaned on the kitchen door with his arms around his chest and watched his mother wash the dishes there. A faint smile of evil charm gradually appeared in the corners of his mouth. "Mom, why don''t I turn your daughter-in-law back and wash the dishes with you?" Ye Chenyu said evil ruffian. Mother Ye looked back and stared at Ye Chenyu. "My daughter-in-law is not used to wash dishes." Take back your sight, and mother Ye''s men kept saying, "but I''d like you to turn me a daughter-in-law." "Do you have any requirements?" Ye Chenyu asked with a joke in his voice, "for example, whether it''s good to have a baby, whether he has a good temper..." Mother Ye stopped her movements and simply turned to look at Ye Chenyu. "Your daughter-in-law, what do I want? For you, just like you." Suddenly Mother Ye stared slightly, "smelly boy, are you going to bring the girl back to see me?" Chapter 1122 "No!" Ye Chenyu answered positively. Mother Ye obviously scratched disappointment on her face. "Are you kidding me when you say so much?" Mother ye turned angrily and continued to wash the dishes. "You are old and old. No matter how wonderful the outside world is, there must be a time to rest..." Listening to mother Ye''s "nagging", ye Chenyu always feels warm. Unlike other children, he likes to listen to his mother''s "nagging" "So I''m going to find a daughter-in-law to live." Ye Chenyu said with an evil smile. Mother Ye didn''t believe it on her face and wiped her hands, "well, I''m just listening." "Mom, don''t do this..." Ye Chenyu took mother Ye''s shoulder. "Your son, I''m rarely serious for a while, can''t you listen carefully?" "When you bring your daughter-in-law to me, I''ll be serious!" Mother Ye feels innocent. Ye Chenyu said, "I''ll bring it to you in a month." "Tut Tut, it''s like a military order..." mother ye turned her eyes. "I''ll wait!" Ye Chenyu let go of his mother and stared, "OK!" Mother Ye chuckled and shook her head. She couldn''t figure out what her daughter-in-law would be like in the future? The mother and son quarreled and chatted Time soon arrived in the afternoon. "You just came back and didn''t have a party?" Mother ye asked. "No appointment..." Ye Chenyu lay lazily on the sofa, looked at his mother and said, "I want to eat lasagna." As soon as mother ye heard this, the smile on her face became more comfortable and she got up immediately. "Don''t wait for me to finish it. You say something happens suddenly... If so, you don''t want me to do it for you in the future." "I''m yours today. Don''t worry, I won''t!" Ye Chenyu and his mother blinked and made her laugh. Watching mother ye go to cook dinner happily, ye Chenyu''s vision gradually becomes far-reaching In addition to Shaochen and Chen Yu, they can survive with the support of their mother. Every time Shaochen brings the noodles, what reason does he have not to stand up for them?! ¡­¡­ "Elder sister, how do you feel that you have no appetite recently?" Chen Feng cut the steak and looked at Chen Yu sitting opposite. "Besides, how do you remember to call me out to eat with you today?" "Dad and mom went to the party. I don''t want to eat alone..." Chen said calmly. Chen Feng immediately brightened his eyes, "eh, when did you become unloving?" His eyes lit up. "You used to think a person was normal." Chen Yu raised his eyes and looked at Chen Feng, "I don''t want to be alone now, OK?" "Tut Tut, elder sister..." Chen Feng simply put down his knife and fork and asked with a cheap face, "it''s autumn now, isn''t the season right?!" "..." Chen Yu squinted angrily, "you just miss spring!" "I didn''t say you miss spring..." Chen Feng raised his eyebrows, looked at Chen Yu with a thief smile, and asked with a gossip on his face, "sister, do you really have someone you like? What kind of? What do you do?" Chen Yu took a small spoon and poked the thick soup in some boredom. With his other arm supporting the table and the back of his hand supporting his cheek, he lowered his eyes and said, "you''d better worry about yourself." Then she changed the subject and raised her eyes, "I heard that several old shareholders of the company bullied you in the days when you returned to the company?" Chen Feng said, "I don''t want to see you yet. I don''t want to see you anymore." He raised his eyebrows and said with a look of praise: "but I finally made them obedient. One was directly angry with me and went to the hospital for rest." Listening to what Chen Feng said there, Chen Yu gradually drifted away. Turn your head and look out of the window The bustling city of Los Angeles is even more lively at night. But such a lively, Chen Yu is unexpectedly unprecedented empty. "Sister, did you listen to me?" Chen Feng is dissatisfied. Chen Yu looked back, "No." "..." Chen Feng twitched at the corner of his mouth, "you really didn''t feel embarrassed at all." Chen Yu smiled, "what are you doing next?" "If you''re all right, I''ll go back to school." "Why don''t you go and have a drink with me?" Chen Feng feels more and more that Chen Yu is a little strange. Since I was going to be a policeman, when have I been so soft... To a touch of sadness? "Good!" Chen Feng didn''t poke Chen Yu. "Anyway, I won''t have class tomorrow morning." After dinner, the two brothers and sisters drove to blues. Chen Feng is young in the end. For him, such a place is a little deep, which is not in line with his temperament. But in the end, he came to accompany Chen Yu. Naturally, he had no objection. "Miss Chen, the boss invited you." The bartender put down Chen''s wine and put down another bottle. Chen Yu was surprised. He subconsciously looked around, but he didn''t see Gu Beichen. "Gu zongzai?" "Yes." The bartender answered. "Can I see him?" Chen Wei paused and asked. The bartender hesitated. "Let me ask you." "OK..." The bartender left and soon returned. "Please." Chen Yu explained to Chen Feng and went to see Gu Beichen with the bartender first Chen Feng frowned. "What I don''t like is the boss of this store, right?" Whispering, he looked left and right. "Our boss is married..." At the right time, a bartender passed by. Chen Feng looked at him and immediately stared, "married?" "Yes, the older children are six years old." As soon as Chen Feng heard this, he immediately drew from the corners of his mouth. I''ll go I don''t like a married man, do I?! That''s why I''m so melancholy But what do you think? I can''t be a junior?! Chen Feng said that he was very depressed. His face, which showed the temperament of a big boy, was like pasting a layer of balsam pear juice. "Who is your boss?" Chen Feng asked curiously. The bartender shrugged and said he had no comment. Chen Feng leaned discouraged on the soft sofa and looked at the wine in front of him. Suddenly, he also felt so melancholy Of course, Chen Yu didn''t expect that his brother was unrestrained and had sketched a dog blood drama for her. She sat opposite Gu Beichen, took a breath secretly, and asked, "is he all right?" "Not bad." Gu Beichen took the wine bottle and poured a cup for Chen. "If you want to care about him, why don''t you ask yourself?" "I''ve been working continuously, and it''s only over today..." Chen Yu subconsciously said, "I think he''s going home today, so it''s not easy to disturb the reunion with his family." "Well, good reason, also good excuse." Gu Beichen doesn''t show any kindness. Chen Yu grinned secretly. Because of Ye Chenyu''s detoxification, she also contacted Gu Beichen several times. Like rumors, indifference. But it''s different He seems to be very kind and concerned about the people around him. "Do you like him?" When Chen Yu was a little nervous and didn''t know how to continue the topic, Gu Beichen asked her with a deep look. "Or did you fall in love with him because you shared life and death?" Chapter 1123 Chen Yu frowned slightly and looked at Gu Beichen puzzled. "Do you think I''m confused for a while because I''m grateful and moved... Or because of his boyfriend''s strength when he works?" Chen Yu said, frowning more intensely, "or, Mr. Gu thought, what confused feelings did I have because I accompanied him through his most difficult days?" "Otherwise?" Gu Beichen indifferently overlapped his legs and leaned slowly on the sofa. The eagle''s eyes looked at Chen Yu through the less bright light. Chen Chen was a little angry. "I don''t think President Gu has the right to comment on my feelings like this." Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but just a faint smile on his cold face that people couldn''t understand. "I''m not a little girl. I''ve devoted my adolescence to training." Chen Yu took a deep breath and said calmly, "I really don''t have any emotional experience, but I can tell whether I pay emotion for a person confused or indulge myself more and more because of emotion." "Because you studied psychology?" The voice of Gu Zhong was mixed with a low voice. "No..." Chen Shu lowered his eyes. "If President Gu has to ask for a reason, I can only say..." She raised her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen seriously. "Ye Chenyu''s personal charm covers everything." Gu Beichen raised an invisible range on one side of his thin lip. He raised his hand and sipped the red wine, but he didn''t speak. "Between men and women, isn''t it because each other can attract themselves?" Chen Yu raised his eyebrows. "Then, everything about him, in your eyes, has become a factor that attracts you." Gu Beichen''s eyes dropped slightly on the red wine in the glass. "My wife and I have been married for many years..." he gently twisted the glass. "I''ve experienced a lot of things. It''s not because of personal charm that I can come to this day." Lifting his eyes, his ink pupil is indifferent. "Chen Yu, Chenyu has many advantages, but its disadvantages become relative..." Chen Yu listened quietly. "The problem between you is not just yourself, okay?" "But now, I don''t know how to solve our own problems..." Chen Yu said frankly. She doesn''t want Ye Chenyu to make minor changes with her because of her guilt or something during detoxification. "Then you come to see me now and just ask him if he''s okay?" Gu Beichen suddenly smiled, obviously teasing. Chen Yu blushed, knowing that she was a little inconsistent. But Chen is not a hypocritical person. Gu Beichen sees through it and simply says, "no, I actually want to ask, if I chase him, will I be embarrassed if I fail?" "Hmm..." Gu Beichen slightly tilted his head, looked down at the position of the wine cellar and slowly opened his mouth. "I was told by my wife that I was a scum man, and then I couldn''t react. I continued to rely on her." Chen Yu was slightly stunned. Gu Beichen didn''t care at all. Instead, he recalled that he was a little proud. "But in the end, am I a scum man, my wife, or my wife!" Gu Beichen said and got up. Chen Yu was intoxicated by his happy words. Seeing him get up, he subconsciously stood up with him and his eyes moved with him "Chen, I remember there was a bottle of romannee conti last time?" Jane Mo wrung her eyebrows. "I looked for it several times and didn''t see it." "Someone wants to flirt with a woman, so he takes it away..." Gu Beichen said casually. "Who''s so big? Flirting with women with romannee conti?" Jane has a gossip face. Gu Beichen smiled and was used to Jian Mo''s sudden change of painting style because of her pregnancy recently. He looked at Chen Yu and Jian Mo looked down his line of sight beauty! Or high cold beauty "Hey," Jane Mo lowered her voice slightly and approached Gu Beichen, "isn''t that woman her?" Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Jane Mo stared, "isn''t that someone you?" "What if it is?" Chen Yu asked first. Jane thought, "then Mr Gu will be miserable." Chen Yu looked at Gu Beichen, who had a headache, but it was obvious that he was spoiled. Jane Mo ignored Gu Beichen and just walked to Chen. After looking up and down at the circle, she smiled and said, "Hello, Jane mo." "Chen Yu." Chen Yu touched his hand and shook hands with Jian Mo, "Gu and I are not..." "I know." Jane Mo smiled. "I''m just kidding." As soon as Chen Yu heard this, he breathed a sigh of relief, but he suddenly understood that under Gu Beichen''s indifferent appearance, there was overflow of happiness. "I basically know all the people in his circle now. Can you introduce you..." Jane Mo pondered, "well, can you make me quickly understand my identity?" Chen Yu looked at Gu Beichen and said generously, "Ye Chenyu''s direct superior is on a mission this time." "Oh..." Jane Mo nodded. "That means that ye Chenyu brought you the bottle of romannee conti?" "I paid!" Chen Yu smiled. "But he owes a lot of money for wine..." Chen Yu was stunned and immediately remembered what he said when he met Ye Chenyu here. "If I can handle him successfully, I''ll pay the bill!" "Oh..." Jane Mo suddenly realized, "it turns out that you know his things." Chen Yu looked at Jian Mo with a smile and suddenly reacted Jane Mo made it clear in a few words. "Chen Chen... Hey, be intimate. Call me Mo Mo and I''ll call you Xiao Chen!" Jane Mo said and pulled Chen to sit down. Gu Beichen can''t laugh or cry. Mo''er is completely addicted to matchmaking. Is it Will the emperor open a marriage agency? What kind of blind date program does the TV station get to relieve her boredom? Gu Beichen didn''t interrupt. He quietly looked at Jian Mo and said to Chen that ye Chenyu had some places to start Chen Chen was also thinking about whether she should chase Ye Chenyu. Naturally, she would be happy to listen to Jian Mo''s internal information. It''s just that Chen Feng, who is suffering at the moment and is pulled over by Chen, complains with his friends on wechat and is hung by his own sister. Time passes under the rotation of the second hand For several days, the atmosphere in Los Angeles was overcast and felt that it was going to rain at any time. Ye Chenyu, who had rested for a few days, obviously looked better under the care of his mother. Monday. When ye Chenyu got up, he went to the special police team. Everyone was very happy to see that he was really all right. "Ye team, when will you return?" "You haven''t been here recently, and no one has stimulated us... We all feel a little ''Laozi is the best in the world'' now." "Yes, we''re just waiting for team ye to come back and abuse us!" Everyone was very excited. "I still owe Yang Zi a competition..." Ye Chenyu looked at Yang Jinyu, "get ready to fight." "Necessary." Yang Jinyu smiled and nodded. Ye Chenyu patted him on the shoulder, motioned that after everyone dispersed, he looked at the time and was ready to go. "Brother Yu, what are you doing?" Qiao Rui hurriedly shouted, "you''re not in the team to have lunch with everyone?" "Busy!" "What are you doing?" Qiao Rui didn''t understand, "isn''t it that you haven''t officially returned to the team?" Ye Chenyu stopped and looked back at Qiao Rui. The evil ruffian frowned and winked, "busy chasing his daughter-in-law..." Chapter 1124 "Go after your daughter-in-law..." Qiao Rui whispered. When ye Chenyu turned and lifted his step again, Qiao Rui widened his eyes in an instant. He strode to catch up with him, "sister Chen?" "Hum!" Ye Chenyu took out the car key. Joe Rui grinned, "brother Yu, are you kidding or serious?" "Am I kidding?" Ye Chenyu looked at Qiao Rui with disgust. Qiao Rui nodded solemnly, "when you talk, it''s basically false when I think it''s true... But when I think it''s false, it''s true again!" Ye Chenyu opened the door and looked at Qiao Rui with evil spirits between his eyebrows and eyes. "Do you think what I''m saying is true or false?" "Brother Yu, I won''t tell whether it''s true or not..." Qiao Rui put his arms on the roof. "But sister Yu, I think you should chase if you''re sincere, and don''t joke if you''re not sincere." Ye Chenyu held the door lazily, "what? Are you interested in her?" "Are you kidding?" Qiao Rui rolled his eyes. "I''m not interested in being pressed by women... Although I''m not very masculine, I''m not going to find a system." After a pause, he continued, "I just don''t think it''s easy for sister Chen to accompany you in detoxification... Women are afraid of emotional." Ye Chenyu looked at Qiao Rui deeply and smiled. He didn''t say anything. He got up and wanted to get on the bus. Qiao Rui also got up and didn''t say anything. After two steps back, he watched Ye Chenyu''s car leave. In fact, I''m afraid brother Yu has already considered what he said. Brother Yu is so understanding. How can he make fun of such a thing? It seems that Qiao Rui is going to write a fairy tale Then Qiao Rui turned around. I saw Yang Jinyu standing not far away "Yang Zi?" Qiao Rui wondered and walked over. Yang Jinyu looked at Ye Chenyu''s car out of the gate of the special police force before taking back his sight. "I just heard you say, what is the myth of the police force?" "Brother Yu and sister Yu." Qiao Rui said with a smile and motioned Yang Jinyu to go together. "If brother Yu starts quickly, it is estimated that he will have to pay a red envelope this year..." As soon as he said this, Yang Jinyu immediately understood what he meant. A touch of astringency crossed the bottom of his eyes, and he pulled at the corners of his mouth. "Two people are quite suitable..." "Whether this thing is suitable for emotional things is not whether it is attractive or not." "Yes!" Yang Jinyu lowered his eyes and covered his loss. Chen Yu is so excellent that only an excellent man like brother Yu can stand with her ¡­¡­ LAPD, General Administration. In such a large conference room, the atmosphere is particularly dignified, with a stiff confrontation. It seems that the air is not circulating because of confrontation. Lu Ju sat in the middle of the front, looked across Chen Yu and frowned slightly. "Ye Chenyu has been working undercover since the police academy. How many cases have he solved for so many years?" Wang Qiang was also cold. "Don''t say that he didn''t catch the drug himself, it''s for the task... Now he quit." At the end, Wang Qiang obviously sneered. "The legal principle is nothing more than human feelings. Isn''t the result of this discussion cold the hearts of the combatants?" Wang Qiang''s words fell. After scanning Li Bureau, he fell on Lu Bureau. "Director, do you think so?" Lu Bureau looked at Wang Qiang and didn''t speak. Li Ju snorted coldly, "the people in Wang Ju are naturally partial..." he laughed, "but the rules are the rules... How can the police who have entered the drug treatment center trust the citizens?" "What Wang Ju said is sympathetic, but I agree with Li Ju." "Yes, it''s a pioneer. How can we do it in the future?" "Before, there was a similar situation in the south district. In the end, it was just for the internal staff..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The meeting room where I used to live was suddenly like a frying pan. You talk to me, some agree to deal with it according to the rules, and some think it''s too impersonal "Pa!" Suddenly, a heavy sound came. Chen Chen''s slender palm patted on the conference table with great strength, and then he stood up. The chair was almost overturned by her because it was so strong and fierce. "Chen Chen, what are you doing?" A frown of discontent. Here, are the leaders of various districts. Chen Yu is here, and the level is low. "What are you doing?" Chen Yu sneered, and his apricot eyes crossed the people in the conference room. "You sit in the office one by one, open your mouth and don''t talk. Does your back ache?" When she said this, most people frowned and looked angry. "Rules? What rules?" Chen Chen Leng hum, "the rule is to be refrigerated after a narrow escape?" The voice of doubt was mocking, "Ye Chenyu was using his life to provide information, you were drinking tea..." Chen Chen gritted his teeth. "When he was forcibly injected with the drug, you were eating and drinking comfortably." Someone''s face is already a little ugly. "In the end, our hero can come back alive and survive the difficulties..." Chen Yu was furious immediately. "Are you all right with him in this position?" "Ha ha! Ha ha ha!" Chen Chen smiled sarcastically and his eyes were cold. "I''ll put it here today... Ye Chenyu is from my east district. He, I want to protect Chen Chen!" She looked across the crowd again "I not only want to protect, but also let all combatants understand... If anyone doesn''t like their madness, I''ll carry it!" The sound of "pa" came again. This time, instead of patting his hand on the table, Chen pulled out the gun from the holster and patted it on the table. "Chen Chen, what are you doing?" "Chen Chen, are you crazy? Do you think you are a bandit?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu looked at the frightened faces and felt as disgusting as he wanted to be. "Seriously, how are you going to get rid of Ye Chenyu here one by one," Chen Yu glanced at the bottom of his eyes, and his eyes fell on Lu Ju. "Let''s see if people are willing to stay!" Wang Qiang''s face was heavy. It''s a little unexpected that Chen Yu came back from a task and was contaminated with Ye Chenyu''s temperament, but now I have to say that he was happy. "Chen Chen, if ye Chenyu became addicted when he was on duty, what would be the impact? Can you shoulder the responsibility?" Li Ju suddenly sneered, "what place do you think this is?" "What you think of our combatants, I''ll think of it here!" Chen said coldly, "I''ll put this here today. If you have to follow the rules, my East District won''t agree!" "Well, Chen Yu said so, I have no problem!" The director of the Eastern District Youyou, who had not spoken, said. Suddenly, everyone looked at him. Li Bureau immediately stood up dissatisfied, "Lao Zhang, you indulge your subordinates in fooling around at the meeting..." Before he finished, the meeting room was opened. Li bureau just wanted to get angry when he saw several people in the uniform of the procuratorate come in. The first person nodded with Lu Bureau, then went to Li Bureau, took the certificate handed over by another person and opened it, "Li Bureau, after receiving the report, you are suspected of obstructing judicial justice and involvement in triad, please follow us and assist in the investigation!" Chapter 1125 The sudden change made the whole meeting room stunned for a moment. Only a few people looked coldly, as if they were not surprised at all. "No wonder there are ghosts in my heart." Chen Yu looked at Li Ju with a discolored face and immediately didn''t make a sound for the sneer of face. "What are you talking about? Just because I''m under investigation doesn''t mean I have something..." Li Ju snorted coldly. "Chen Yu, principle is principle. Even if I''m under investigation, I won''t vote for ye Chenyu''s return." "Take care of yourself first." Chen Yu said coldly. As for Li Ju''s "confidence", she naturally knows what it means. In the end, she is a member of a rich family. Some corners are not so naive. I''m afraid Li Ju thinks someone wants to protect him for their own interests? What a pity Chen Yu flashed a sly light at the bottom of his eyes, turned and walked towards Li Ju. Everyone looked at Chen Yu and didn''t know what she was going to do. Today''s Chen Yu has done something that is inconsistent with her usual arrogance. We want to see what else she can do? Li Ju looked at Chen Yu with her eyelids straight. She sneered at the corners of her mouth and leaned over his ear "Li Ju, have you ever heard of the identity behind Ye Chenyu?" Chen asked in a voice that only two people could hear. Li Ju frowned. Chen Yu''s eyes were cold, and his mouth was filled with a bloodthirsty smile. He said slowly, "I heard that he is mo Bian... Oh, he is the brother of Mo Shaochen, the most famous criminal defense lawyer in Los Angeles." Chen Yu obviously felt that Li Ju''s body shook slightly. "It''s Mo Shaochen''s brother," said Chen Yu, smiling at the corners of his mouth, but without any temperature. "What''s the force behind him? When Li bureau wants to be examined, think about it and make it clear?" Chen Yu''s words fell, slightly tilted his head, and looked at Li Ju''s face, which was full of flesh and blood. He was very happy at once. When he got up, Chen Yu appreciated the face of Xiali bureau again and said, "good luck to Li Bureau. I hope you can come back and vote." Obviously, the sarcastic words were not covered up. Chen Chen indifferently withdrew his sight, turned around and returned to his position. The people of the procuratorate greeted Lu Bureau and took Li Bureau away immediately The atmosphere in the meeting room suddenly became strange. "Continue to discuss Ye Chenyu''s return." Lu Bureau broke the dignified statement and didn''t mention the matter that Li Bureau was taken away. As soon as Lu Ju''s words fell, Chen Yu stood up. Originally, several people wanted to speak, but they didn''t know what their psychology was. When they saw Chen Yu standing up, they swallowed his words one after another. "I''ll just say one thing," Chen said sharply. "Li Ju, who is most strongly opposed to Ye Chenyu, is not here at the moment." After the words fell, her eyes were sharp and indifferent, and she sat down calmly. But as soon as she said this, it aroused thousands of waves in the conference room. "Chen Chen, what do you mean?" Chen Yu didn''t explain, but turned with a pen in his hand What do I mean, you won''t think about it yourself? A faint smile crossed the bottom of Lu Ju''s eyes. Wang Qiang just wants to clap his hands The director of the Eastern District has a headache. This is a ruffian Ye Chenyu, who has become two? It''s all under his jurisdiction Chen Yu''s words made it clear that if anyone objected, it was estimated that he was with Li Ju. Those with ghosts in their hearts naturally dare not speak. Those without ghosts in their hearts are also reflecting on the shooting of guns by Chen Yu. The legal principle is nothing more than human feelings, so they don''t speak "It seems that everyone has no objection." Lu Bureau looked around and said, "in this case, on the other side of the East District, do ye Chenyu''s work well... The police force needs him very much. This is my word!" The director of the Eastern District and Chen Ying both responded. The meeting was originally for ye Chenyu''s business, which was "solved". After Lu Bureau said a few more words about other things, the meeting broke up. "Xiaoyu, it''s good for you to come back from this mission." Wang Qiang grinned admiringly. Chen Yu looked at Wang Qiang coldly and said with a smile: "I also found that the Wang bureau is getting older and older now..." "..." Wang Qiang was stunned. He looked at Chen Yu convulsively. He turned and took his matching gun and left with a cold and arrogant step. "Lao Wang," the director of the East District patted Wang Qiang on the shoulder, "there will be good seedlings like Ye Chenyu in the future. I''m not afraid of evil in the East District. Get more!" Wang Qiang glanced coldly, "you said you had a good seedling, cultivate and take care of it until the end. I''m making wedding clothes for people... I''m stupid!" He bounced his shoulder and left the meeting room depressed under the hearty laughter of the director of the East District. It has begun to rain outside. It''s not big. It''s poetic. Chen Yu got into the car and breathed a long sigh Li Ju was taken away in the conference room. Chen Yu didn''t think it was a coincidence. Thinking, he looked at the General Administration Building It must have something to do with Wang bureau! Chen Yu took back his sight, started the car and went to the east district police station. Along the way, she thought about how to talk to Ye Chenyu. Before we finally separated from him, did he mean to leave the Swat? At the east district police station, Chen didn''t understand. "Chen Ju, I''m back..." "Yes." Chen Yu answered and kept walking. "Brother Yu, I''ll tell you, this improved listener is really awesome..." Walking through the office area of the criminal police team, I heard Lu Xiaowei''s worried voice. "Hey, brother Yu, don''t believe it, really... Ensure that the current instrument can''t scan... I use special materials to resist magnetic field..." Chen Yu stopped subconsciously. She stood at the door and looked inside Ye Chenyu has always been lazy and evil, leaning on the work grid. Looking at the things paved by Lu Xiaowei in front, he wrote "don''t believe" without face! Lu Xiaowei became more anxious as he explained. Finally, he simply said, "let''s bet that if you win, I''ll listen to you and I win... Hey, hey, you have to teach me how to draw a gun and shoot at the fastest speed." Ye Chenyu shrugged, "OK, you''ll lose anyway." "Brother Yu, can''t you worry about my feelings?" Lu Xiaowei was somewhat discouraged. Ye Chenyu smiled with evil spirits, slightly turned his eyebrows and eyes, and saw Chen Yu at the door. Chen Yu quickly took back his sight and stepped away Pretending to pass by without knowing anything. "Eh, Chen Ju..." "Yes." Lu Xiaowei frowned and said, "Chen didn''t see you?" "See, pretend not to see." "..." Lu Xiaowei twitched at the corners of his mouth, "you really guessed it." Ye Chenyu smiled, picked Lu Xiaowei''s things under his chin and asked him to start the experiment. Chen Yu''s heart beat like thunder and returned to her office. At the moment when she closed the door, she grinned secretly Why is she guilty? Why is she so childish?! Chen Yu secretly despised himself and walked to his desk with a depressed face. When people sit down, they see a post it note on the computer screen. Chen Yu frowned slightly and leaned over to take it Chapter 1126 On the post it note is a really casual painting with a few strokes. At the edge of the cliff, one is on it and one is hanging The people at the bottom shouted: you let go, or you will die. The person above replied: I want to put it, but it''s fucking stuck ¡°¡­¡­¡± Seeing the painting, Chen Yu immediately looked black. She whispered again for the move she had just "escaped". Ye Chenyu had predicted that she would hide when she came back to see him So I deliberately put the painting here in advance. Not to remind her that he saved her that day, but to remind her of her confession when she was hanging. Chen Yu put his forehead on his desk and looked down on the post it note in his hand. The whole face, even the whole heart and nerves, were complex. "Chen Chen, why are you so stupid?" Chen Yu was very worried. "Before Gu Beichen, he said he wanted to catch up. It hasn''t started yet. You''re instinctively afraid... What ghost Chen Yu despised himself and looked up at the time. Lunch time is coming Well, would you like to ask him to come in and talk about staying in the Swat, and then have lunch? If you cover it up with work, you won''t be so embarrassed?! Chen Yu nodded, gave himself an affirmation and pressed the inside line. "Ye Chenyu is here, isn''t he?" Chen Yu was serious. "Let him come to my office." "Chen Ju, just now team ye and Xiaowei went out and said that the test monitor went..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Shuo twitched at the corners of his mouth and suddenly felt like "eating Xiang". "He came back and asked him to come to me..." Chen said. "OK." Hung up the inside line and leaned back on the chair. Chen Yu sighed long The sight fell on the post it note again, and the voice said discontentedly, "I''ll confess that I like you. It''s not a shame. What''s the matter..." She opened the drawer angrily, threw the post it note in and closed it again. "Is it interesting to remind me?" Chen turned his eyes and his mouth. "You see me, you know I''m going to hide from you. Why don''t you take the initiative?" Chen Yu was dissatisfied. "Anyway, I''ll accompany you in detoxification. I''m tired and hard-working... I don''t know how to be grateful at all." Chen Yu was talking to himself alone in the office. When the reaction came over, he immediately looked tangled. Is she a psychopath now?! Thinking, look at the time It''s time for dinner. Chen Chen angrily got up and went to the canteen. Looking around, she didn''t see the figure she wanted to see. She knew she was lost. But thinking that Lu Xiaowei was a technical controller, it was estimated that those who took Ye Chenyu to study forgot to eat. Chen Yu went back to the office after eating alone. Thinking that she had nothing to do in the afternoon, she might as well wait for ye Chenyu and Lu Xiaowei to come back. Unfortunately When she got off work, she didn''t wait for anyone. "I pretend I can''t see it. It doesn''t matter if you don''t see me yet!" Chen Chen grinned and hummed. After changing his private clothes in the dressing room, he took his bag and got ready to leave work. It''s still drizzling at noon. I don''t know when it will stop. Chen Yu walked to the parking lot. From a distance, he saw Ye Chenyu leaning on his SUV, holding his pocket with one hand and smoking with evil spirits on the other hand. When ye Chenyu saw Chen Yu coming, he raised his eyes and asked with a smile, "have a meal together?" Chen Yu didn''t know what she was carrying. Anyway, when ye Chenyu asked this, she walked towards her car with a cold face. As soon as Chen opened the door, he was closed by external force. "Ye Chen... Ah..." Chen Yu wanted to get angry, but his words were just exported, so he was directly held up by Ye Chenyu Yes, it''s a lift, not a hug! Then carry it directly on your shoulder "Ye Chenyu, what are you doing? You put me down!" Chen Yu blew up immediately. He wanted to come down, but he didn''t focus on the right point. In addition, ye Chenyu also prevented Chen from turning down and used his strength Ye Chenyu ignored her, directly pulled away the co driver of his car and "threw" Chen into it. Chen Yu is so angry that he instinctively wants to get off. "Do you know how many people are watching outside at the moment?" Ye Chenyu''s ruffian voice came. Chen Yu immediately stared and looked sideways Sure enough, a group of people looked at this side with laughter. God! It''s time to get off work It''s all lost to the Pacific! Chen Chen gritted his teeth, "Ye Chenyu, you''ve had enough!" Ye Chenyu smiled and closed the door. He didn''t care about the people who looked at his East branch and went straight to the co pilot. After a handsome reversing and wagging his tail, he left in the sight of everyone "Is this a revolutionary friendship?" "No, it''s love!" "How do you feel like your wallet is shriveled..." "I''d like to know now whether we are guests from our mother''s family or husband''s family at the coming wedding?" The vice captain of the criminal police team shook his head and said bitterly: "your problems are not my problems. My problem is, won''t there be two elements?" As soon as they heard this, they immediately laughed. Then, one after another said goodbye to the next shift Everyone''s joke, Chen Yu doesn''t know. She''s a little depressed at the moment. Her previous position affects her future position. She wants to wait whether she wants to preempt or not. She has to seize the opportunity first. But I think it''s inappropriate What if ye Chenyu just thanked her, so he just had a meal?! Is it a little early for her to think about her future family status? Thinking, the car stopped at a restaurant. "Get off!" Ye Chenyu loosened his seat belt. Chen Yu hummed, "you invited me to dinner, didn''t you?" "Yes!" Ye Chenyu nodded. "Shouldn''t you ask my advice?" Chen Chen deliberately provoked. Ye Chenyu put his arm on the steering wheel and looked always ruffian, "do you have a problem?" "..." Chen Yu pulled at the corner of his mouth and said with gnashing teeth, "why don''t I have any opinion? Look at me. Why should I go to a western restaurant or a more elegant place?" Isn''t that kind of place more emotional or something? Or, let her fantasize Chen Yu''s heart kept feigning. Ye Chenyu glanced up and down. Chen Yu was full of luxury goods. "Which one do you think is better, Chen group or emperor?" Chen Yu doesn''t know that ye Chenyu asked this. Doesn''t he think the topic is wrong? But thinking like this, Chen Yu hummed and said, "nonsense, of course it''s the emperor!" "Oh..." Ye Chenyu nodded. "Gu Beichen and Jian Mo came here every three or five times to eat." Then he looked at Chen Yu''s angry face and wanted to hit people. He didn''t know it at all. He rubbed her head with his big palm and said, "get off." Chen Yu is very depressed! What she''s trying to say is not whether it''s in line with her identity here, okay? What she wants to express is, can''t she have a little romantic dinner?! Angry, the door was opened by Ye Chenyu. Chen Yu didn''t move. Ye Chenyu took time to support the door and said, "three seconds, I can carry it if it doesn''t go down..." Chapter 1127 Chen Yu didn''t doubt the truth of Ye Chenyu''s words, so he got out of the car reluctantly. "Chenyu, don''t be afraid to tell me..." Chen Yu''s words didn''t finish, and ye Chenyu had grabbed his hand. There is no sense of strangeness, as if there have been such actions many times Hand in hand, close the door, pull Chen up the stairs from one side... All the actions are done at one go. Chen Shugang was still full of momentum. For a moment, because his hand was held by Ye Chenyu, his heart beat like thunder and forgot to think. It is said that once a woman falls into the strange circle of love, her IQ will become low and may be negative. Seriously, Chen Yu didn''t believe it before, but now... She believes it. It''s not the first time ye Chenyu held her hand. Although the situation was different before, why... Her heartbeat is about to burst at this moment?! "Why are you blushing?" Ye Chenyu suddenly asked. "Ah?!" Chen Yu looked up at Ye Chenyu foolishly. His steps didn''t stop with him, but his face was ignorant. Ye Chenyu suddenly stopped when he looked at Chen Yu. Because it was on the stairs, and ye Chenyu was already taller than Chen Yu, he looked at her with a little condescending feeling at the moment. Chen Yu looked up slightly and was looked at by Ye Chenyu. She even forgot to breathe. Alas! Chen Yu suddenly thought of a sentence. Why not marry?! "Chen Chen, I''m pulling you away..." Ye Chenyu suddenly bowed down slightly, his voice was full of banter under the evil spirit, and slowly opened his mouth, "are you thinking about something that you don''t have?" Hearing this, Chen Yu immediately stared and subconsciously retorted, "who''s dreaming?" "Eh, no?!" Ye Chenyu seemed very disappointed, but his eyes were full of the profundity under the evil flattery. "I thought you confessed to me at the critical moment and accompanied me through the suffering. How to say... You really have ideas about me!" His face moved closer to Chen Yu again. "Don''t you... Actually have no thoughts on me?" "..." Chen Yu was speechless. Say ''no'', she does. I don''t know why. I always feel that the conversation at this moment is a little strange. "Ye Chenyu, what do you want?" Chen Yu sank his face. "Didn''t he confess to you? As for you, do you use it as a joke?" She snorted coldly, "I just like you. How? Do I need your consent to like it?" Ye Chenyu smiled at the corners of his mouth, and there was an obvious emotion in the bottom of his eyes. Chen Chen secretly grinned and really wanted to bite his tongue. She likes Ye Chenyu. Why doesn''t she want him to agree? If he doesn''t agree, isn''t her single love fruitless?! "The sentence just behind..." Chen swallowed and said with some angry teeth, "I take it back!" "Hahaha..." Ye Chenyu immediately laughed without face. Looking at Chen Yu''s rare embarrassment, he felt that it was really good to have such a woman around. "Have you laughed enough?" Chen Chen completely looked like a broken pot. "Can you go to dinner if you have had enough laughter?" "Well, yes!" As ye Chenyu said, the smile on his face didn''t stop at all. He took Chen Yu and continued to go upstairs. Chen Chen looked at Ye Chenyu''s back and said that she would disdain to do anything if she had gone back on her word. At least, obviously wrong, she has to hold on. But just now, why is she weak?! It is agreed that the current status determines the future status? Just now she said that the latter sentence didn''t count God, what the hell is she doing?! Chen Yu''s heart is mixed, but think about it, she also wants to chase Ye Chenyu, and she can''t carry it all the time. Thinking, ye Chenyu took her to a box, and then a waiter followed her in. After ordering the dishes quickly, he sat down directly next to Chen. Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu blankly. Don''t you usually sit face to face when two people eat? It''s easier to talk like this. "You sit opposite..." Chen Shuxu was dissatisfied with Ye Chenyu''s voice since he just laughed. "It''s convenient to sit here." Ye Chenyu disassembled the tableware for Chen Yu. Chen Yu frowned, "what''s convenient?" Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu angrily and raised his eyebrows, but he didn''t answer. But when Chen Yu knew what was convenient, she suddenly felt In front of a man like Ye Chenyu, it''s a little difficult to want family status! Because you will lose yourself unconsciously! The dishes came up soon. Several home-made dishes had no special features for Chen. It has to be said that there is a man sitting beside her, a man who can make her feel that everything she eats is delicious. However, these dishes seem to have no characteristics, but they are delicious. Chen doesn''t know whether it''s because ye Chenyu is around or because the food is delicious. If people are in a good mood, naturally, everything they eat is delicious. Chen Yu, a rich and powerful man, is no exception. "Is it delicious?" Ye Chenyu suddenly asked. Chen Yu nodded, with food in his mouth, and said, "how did you find it here? It''s delicious." "Well, is the food delicious, or do you think it''s delicious because I eat with you?" Ye Chenyu''s voice has a lazy breath, which is very evil. However, Chen Yu suddenly stared at him. This is what she just thought Is it true that her performance is so obvious that ye Chenyu can see it casually?! A murmur came from the silence. Chen subconsciously swallowed the food in his mouth, and then he began to smoke from the corners of his mouth. "You... Your narcissistic ability, it''s estimated that you are the second, and no one dares to be the first!" Chen Yu snorted, "Ye Chenyu, do you really think the food is delicious because of the person with you?" "Well, isn''t it?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. Chen Chen''s face turned red at once. Under Ye Chenyu''s evil and profound sight, she felt a little stupid. It''s the kind of thing that clearly knows each other. She has to be unreasonable at the moment. And such behavior, how does she feel too much like a couple?! Thinking, a napkin was handed to him "Such a big man, eat a meal, his mouth is full of soup..." Ye Chenyu''s voice came with a trace of helplessness, "wipe it." Chen Yu was still thinking about the unclear relationship between the two. Suddenly, ye Chenyu said this and hurriedly pulled the meal paper he handed over. I was about to wipe it, but I suddenly found that there were words on it and suddenly forgot the action. "Don''t wipe yourself?" Ye Chenyu''s voice came again. After reading the above words, Chen Yu turned his head and looked at Ye Chenyu "You need someone else to help you with such a little thing!" Ye Chenyu said, and before Chen Chen reacted, his face had been bullied, and his lips... Fell on Chen Chen''s mouth. Chapter 1128 With a bang, Chen Chen could clearly feel something exploding in his head. It was so loud that she was stunned Chen Yu forgot to move and stared at his face close to him. Ye Chenyu is very familiar, but it seems to be a strange Ye Chenyu. The napkin in his hand was so shocked that he loosened his hand and fell on the table There is a black font on it, which is a sentence. At the moment, it lingered in Chen Yu''s mind, as if something had entangled her with an indescribable emotion. "Life is like a ferry, rowing from one side to the other. I hope you can go to the other side of life with me in the future..." Chen Yu is stiff there, with the shallow tearing and grinding on his lips, and the crisp feeling of the tip of his tongue touching the skin Ye Yu''s lips are like soup napkins, really. Suddenly Ye Chenyu left Chen Yu slightly. Chen Yu only felt that her heart was pounding violently, leaving her whole nerve out of control. "Close your eyes!" There was an overbearing word in the evil spirit. "Oh..." Chen Yu answered, and closed his eyes. Seeing that she had lost her former intelligence and reason, at this moment, she was completely a little girl, embarrassed but hoping for something. Chen Yu''s smile deepened in the corners of Ye Chenyu''s mouth. And this time Naturally, the lips and tongue are not to wipe the soup, but... Deep entanglement! Chen Yu only felt that his mouth was full of Ye Chenyu''s breath, which made her excited and want to cry. Ye Chenyu''s kiss is irregular. She subconsciously hides and he chases it. If she wants to explore him, he will try his best not to let her succeed After a while, Chen Yu completely forgot his thinking and could only let Ye Chenyu do anything wrong. Until, their breathing became heavy, and the temperature in the small box soared, making people''s whole body dry and hot Ye Chenyu slowly released Chen Yu''s lips. Chen Yu breathed heavily. She opened her eyes and looked at Ye Chenyu. She only felt numb when she was kissed by him. But such numbness "That..." Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu innocently. "This time, close your eyes and do it again!" "..." Ye Chenyu was stunned and then laughed. Chen Yu also suddenly remembered what he had just said. Suddenly, his face turned red again. "It''s only fair if you come once and I come once!" Chen Yu said, trying to suppress the embarrassment overflowing under his uncontrollable emotion. "Kiss me if you want. Where are so many excuses?" Ye Chenyu hissed. When Chen Yu stared, he grabbed the back of her head and pressed it against his lips Of course, he closed his eyes very cooperatively. Chen Chen doesn''t have the experience of Ye Chenyu. She just sticks her lips to him, or with the "help" of Ye Chenyu. Looking at a very close face, thick eyelashes, long Eyeliner... Even the pores seem to be very clear. Gazing at this man from understanding to getting along with and then falling in love, Chen feels that a person''s love for another person has nothing to do with time, just about that person! After waiting for a long time, ye Chenyu didn''t feel any movement from Chen. He suddenly opened his eyes, just opposite Chen Yu''s gaze Two people just look at each other because they are so close that they can even see themselves in each other''s pupils. The atmosphere is a little strange, as if it is ambiguous, as if it is embarrassing, mixed with some embarrassment. Chen Yi pushed Ye Chenyu away, raised his lower lip and said, "this is what you said is convenient?" "Isn''t it convenient?" Ye Chenyu smiled with evil charm, "the difficulty coefficient across the table is a little big, although I think it shouldn''t be a big problem for me..." "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth. "Ye Chenyu..." "Huh?" "What do you want?" Chen Yu finally woke up. "Can''t you see?" Ye Chenyu still looked like a fool and glanced sideways at the napkin. "I''m chasing my daughter-in-law!" "..." Chen Yu twitched again at the corners of his mouth. "Did you chase it like this? Just write it on paper, or a napkin!" "I''m poor!" I can''t help it, "besides, don''t rich women usually like to have emotional appeal? I think the just series should be good... What do you think?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Chen gritted his teeth, "Ye Chenyu!" "Here!" Ye Chenyu answered in his mouth, but his action still maintained the posture of holding Chen Yu just now. "Are you serious?" Chen Yu looked at him without blinking. Ye Chenyu didn''t answer immediately, but his eyes narrowed slightly and looked at Chen Yu''s line of sight, which was deep and bottomless in an instant. Seeing that he didn''t speak, Chen Yu was very upset. He was afraid that it was actually the prank that the man was used to joking. "Chen Yu..." Ye Chenyu''s voice was far-reaching. "I''ve never been so serious in my life." Chen Yu''s heartbeat missed a few beats from Crazy burning to this moment, and his head was short circuited again "You won''t treat drugs with me, so..." "Are women as tangled as you?" Ye Chenyu became his usual evil spirit again. "Huh?" Chen Chen didn''t react for a while. Ye Chenyu smiled at her and said, "that is, when a man doesn''t confess, he thinks why he doesn''t confess? When he confesses, he begins to wonder why he confesses?" "..." Chen Chen was choked by Ye Chenyu again and wanted to cry. "Will you ask me when you look back?" Ye Chenyu suddenly thought of a question. "You and my mother fell into the water. Who should I save first?" "No!" Chen Yu didn''t react, but instinctively said, "just save your aunt first. I can swim!" He paused, "Oh, in fact, I don''t have to be so troublesome. I can directly save my aunt. I''ve been trained... No problem!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Now, ye Chenyu is speechless and choking! Looking at Ye Chenyu''s appearance, Chen Yu''s eyes crossed cunningly. "Chen Yu, you won." Ye Chenyu was unable to laugh or cry, and did not ignore the mood at the bottom of Chen''s eyes. Chen Yu was a little proud. He picked up the written napkin and looked at it again. He was very satisfied. "Ye Chenyu, do you propose to associate or marry?" Chen Yu was suddenly curious. "It depends on whether you just want to be my girlfriend or my wife..." Chen Yu stared at Ye Chenyu discontentedly, "are you a man?" "For me who wants to be raised by a rich woman, you can inspect the goods first in the evening..." Ye Chenyu said with a red face and breathless breath. Chen Yu pulled uncontrollably from the corner of his mouth. Ye Chenyu suddenly leaned forward and said in a very ambiguous position with a dull voice: "you should also know that the poison will make people look at the bath very strongly... Otherwise, we''ll check the goods first later?" Chapter 1129 Ye Chenyu''s breath spread all over Chen Yu''s face with his words, stirring her heartstrings and numbing her nerves at the same time. He swallowed involuntarily, and Chen Chen shouted in his heart! Shout what? How can he be so... Good-looking and should?! Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu''s evil spirit, and suddenly there was a cunning in the bottom of his eyes. "Oh!" A strange voice came with consternation. The evil spirit on Ye Chenyu''s face was gone, and his expression was frozen there. His eyes were full of unbelievable looking at Chen Yu. Chen Yu raised his eyebrows and left the important part of Ye Chenyu with his hand Raise your lips and laugh! "It''s a man with a handle!" Chen Chen imitated Ye Chenyu''s evil spirit, "well, as for whether there is combat effectiveness, I''ll try again when I''m in a good mood." Ye Chenyu looked at Chen and said, got up, took his bag and planned to leave Suddenly, there was a feeling of capsizing in the gutter. "Chen Yu..." Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth. He was touched so generously by a woman and wanted to leave as if nothing had happened? Chen Yu turned and looked at Ye Chenyu. He didn''t speak, but raised the corners of his mouth. "Hey, I don''t care after you touch it?" Ye Chenyu looked a little strange, "isn''t it appropriate?!" Chen Yu smiled and was molested by Ye Chenyu for a meal. At this moment, he was in a good mood. "No lower limit, who won''t?" Chen Chen shrugged, "Ye Chenyu, whether you are a girlfriend or your wife, or I raise you, you always have to show some sincerity." Ye Chenyu frowned slightly. "Well, good luck!" Chen Yu and ye Chenyu blinked, then turned and left with a smile. Ye Chenyu didn''t move. It''s not that he doesn''t want to move, it''s because Xiao Ye Chenyu is so excited after being pawed by Chen Yugang... He can''t move at the moment. Drooping his eyes, looking at the bulging piece, ye Chenyu sighed for a long time Chen Chen really learned from him badly. ¡­¡­ After all, she is a rich woman who wants to raise Ye Chenyu Well, start with a meal! Chen Yu smiled at the corners of his mouth and looked back, but he didn''t see ye Chenyu downstairs. Frown slightly. Chen Yu looks at the time. It''s been five minutes. "Don''t you just touch it? If you''re not shy, you don''t plan to send me back?" Chen Yu murmured and wondered whether to steal the car and leave directly? Of course, she didn''t do that Because soon she thought of a question. As a top student in criminal psychology, she needs to handle many cases There are many natural cases! After all, this is the type of crime that accounts for a large part of the crime. Chen Chen''s face turned red unconsciously. At the thought that ye Chenyu might be unable to get up and walk because of the reaction of important parts, he wanted to laugh and blush. After taking out his mobile phone, Chen Yu wanted to call ye Chenyu But I thought that the man owed a debt and was afraid he would flirt with her. In the end, he just sent a text message: aren''t you going to take me home? Ye Chenyu''s text message soon came back: wait for me for another five minutes. Chen Yu frowned: it''s been nearly ten minutes Ye Chenyu replied: Well, I''m usually not that fast. I always have to finish this game, don''t I? Chen Yu looked at the text message and his pupils dilated instantly. Then another one came in: don''t worry, I''m very persistent. You must have a good sex in the future! ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu felt that she should not feel that sending text messages, and ye Chenyu would not play hooligans! It''s just that he doesn''t care to say this to her, is it really good? She is a girl, a girl Hum! Chen Chen''s reply: do indecent things in public, ye Chenyu, I''ll detain you with obstruction! "Public places are not suitable... Why don''t we find a private place?" The voice of evil spirit came from afar, with a smile. Chen Yu suddenly looked up and saw Ye Chenyu standing at the stairs, smiling at her. ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu''s face turned black. She felt sad for her behavior Ye Chenyu is not serious. Why is she so easily fooled?! "Obscene!" Chen Yu hummed and wanted to turn around again. Of course, ye Chenyu won''t let her go again this time. With an arrow step forward, the big palm caught Chen Yu''s wrist. "Angry?" Ye Chenyu asked. Chen Yu closed his eyes and pulled the corners of his mouth. He turned his head and looked at Ye Chenyu without laughing. "When our relationship has not been determined, do you think what you said to me is so explicit, really good?" "Good!" Ye Chenyu answered with a smile. "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth. Ye Chenyu''s eyes were deep, he leaned over slightly, and his voice was filled with a bewitching low voice. He said slowly, "Chen Yu, because I want you to be my person, I won''t consider what I say to you. Do you need to think twice, okay?" The position of Chen Yu''s heart suddenly shook. She gently fanned her eyes, looked at Ye Chenyu, and gradually closed her lips. "Do you think we''re a little too fast?" Chen Yu asked with some entanglement. The feeling is that she was confessing at the last moment, and he still didn''t like it. The next moment, they can suddenly be intimate and can do "dirty" things seriously Although, such obscenity, she does not reject. Ye Chenyu smiled and didn''t answer. He just opened the door, took Chen Chen''s hand and motioned her to get on the bus. Chen Yu didn''t force her to ask. She thought she was a little too rational At this time, shouldn''t women bother to ask for an answer? But that''s not Chen Yu, who is facing a man named Ye Chenyu who knows what he wants. Ye Chenyu started the car. "I gave my mother a military order..." he glanced at Chen Yu. "Within a month, bring her back a daughter-in-law, so I have to make a quick decision." "But you''re going to do it all in one day!" Chen Yu skimmed his mouth. Ye Chenyu smiled, and his voice was mixed with his usual evil charm, "Chen, whether it''s a day, a month, or even a year..." He looked ahead, and his smile deepened. "It''s not a matter of time, but whether you like me or not and whether you will agree." If two people want to be together, they can reach a consensus in one sentence. If one of them doesn''t want to be together, what''s the significance of the length of time?! Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu understand this truth. "I know you care about what I said to Maggie..." Ye Chenyu stopped at the red light and looked at Chen. "Chen said that at that time because I didn''t know if I could stop taking drugs. Do you know what I mean?" He knows better than anyone what he injected and what he will face. Since there is no beginning, he can only let Chen Yu''s germination be destroyed Chen Yu''s nose became sour. "What do you mean, in fact, you began to like me at that time... Even if it was only a little?" Chapter 1130 "Like it!" Ye Chenyu started the car when the green light was on. The simple two words left a stone in Chen Yu''s heart lake, stirring up layers of ripples. She looked at Ye Chenyu, surprised and surprised. "I don''t know when it started. Maybe it''s the first side, your toughness and ability. Maybe it''s a field field field. It''s obviously fragile and wants to find someone to rely on, but it''s stubborn..." Ye Chenyu continued. "Maybe... It''s you who should be acting but express your deep emotions without doubt." In the sea of Chen Yu''s brain, he crossed the time spent with Ye Chenyu frame by frame. It seems that in real memory, their contact is divided into these three stages "Before, I liked a woman, but it was easy for me to quit." Ye Chenyu said in a confused voice, "Chen Yu, love is not all to me." For ye Chenyu''s honesty, Chen Yu is a little uncomfortable, but he is also happy. "In fact, it''s not because love is not all I have, but maybe it doesn''t belong to me..." Ye Chenyu glanced at Chen Yu again, took back his eyes and continued, "but now I know very well that I want to be with you in the name of love..." The voice of light wind and light clouds said extremely shocking words. Chen Yu doesn''t think what ye Chenyu said is not formal at all, because she knows! After detoxification, under such madness, only Ye Chenyu, who has returned to peace, is the real him "I don''t know if you''re upset." Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu again. Chen zhe turned his mouth and immediately retorted, "what''s wrong with me?!" "Eh, haven''t you thought that I can get rid of drugs because of Shaochen, not because of you?" Ye Chenyu asked curiously. "..." Chen Yu felt embarrassed when he was exposed. Ye Chenyu looked at her and smiled. He looked back and continued to drive. His voice showed a trace of evil charm and said with a smile: "in fact, I''ve also considered this problem..." Chen Chen is a little nervous. "I was thinking that I didn''t quit because of you. I guess I didn''t like you so much..." "Ye Chenyu!" Hearing this, Chen Yu immediately stared and became angry. What the hell? The last moment is still affectionate, and the next moment Looking at Chen Yu''s anger, ye Chenyu smiled. As soon as Chen Yu saw it, he knew that he had been fooled by Ye Chenyu again. "Tell me about you. You still study psychology. You can''t see through..." Seeing that ye Chenyu wants to continue, Chen Yu can only suppress his anger and listen "I didn''t think about it. Why should I?" Grunted. Ye Chenyu looked at Chen again, and his smile deepened. "I didn''t quit drugs because of you, but I can hurt you without scruples!" "Human nature is like this... If you care, you can''t help hurting!" Ye Chenyu sighed, "if we don''t care, we all learn hypocrisy... Don''t we?" A very superficial truth, but it is also a fact. Chen Yu was silent and asked, "how do you know these are all the questions I think?" "Because if you want to understand, you will naturally understand..." Ye Chenyu said. Chen Yu smiled, "Ye Chenyu, you won!" Ye Chenyu listened and looked at Chen Chen''s evil spirit and smiled, but didn''t ask her what he won Two people, want to be together, why affectation? What''s more, they have experienced life and death and such a painful time What''s the reason to spend time together?! The sudden ringing of the mobile phone interrupted Chen''s thoughts. She took it out, saw that it was Xie Zhenru and picked it up. "Mom!" "Will you be back today?" Xie Zhenru asked. Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu. "I don''t know yet... What''s the matter?" Xie Zhenru smiled. "I just had dinner with your aunt Mu and talked about her nephew coming back from abroad..." Chen Yu felt something. "His nephew is two years older than you. He is also a psychology student. It seems that he was invited back this time when he returned home..." Xie Zhenru''s voice couldn''t hide his joy. "I made an appointment to have dinner at the weekend." Speaking of this, Chen Yu was not stupid and immediately understood his mother''s meaning. "Mom," Chen Yu said in a strange voice after looking at Ye Chenyu again, "I''m not going..." "Why?" Xie Zhenru frowned, "your aunt Mu showed me the picture of her nephew, which is definitely something you can see... Besides, it''s similar to your major, and there are common topics..." "No, I..." Chen Yu was a little worried, but before he finished speaking, his mobile phone had been taken away by Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu didn''t know when to pull over, or whether Chen Yu''s mobile phone was loud or his ears were sensitive. Anyway, he heard what Xie Zhenru said. "Hello, aunt," Ye Chenyu said directly, "if you are to introduce Chen Yu to someone, I don''t think you need it... Because I just chased your daughter!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Xie Zhenru was surprised by Ye Chenyu''s words and forgot to respond. Chen Yu didn''t know how to respond because of Ye Chenyu''s "overbearing". "That..." Xie Zhenru asked tentatively, "who are you?" "I am your future son-in-law!" "..." Xie Zhenru was shocked by the sudden news. Ye Chenyu returned his mobile phone to Chen Yu. "I hesitate. You won''t want me to be a spare tire. Let''s see others compare it?" "I didn''t!" Chen Yu was angry and his voice was filled with a trace of grievance. "How did I know my mother would suddenly introduce me..." "Xiaoyu?" Chen Yu looked at his cell phone and stared, "didn''t you hang up?" "No..." Ye Chenyu said with a ruffian smile in his mouth. Chen Fu raised his forehead, held up his mobile phone with a bitter look on his face and said, "Mom, you heard that. Just now that is your future son-in-law. You can also ask him to have dinner with you at the weekend..." "Good!" Ye Chenyu''s smile deepened. Chen Yu completely felt that she would have no status in the future. Because, in front of Ye Chenyu, she can''t escape any ideas ¡­¡­ Mo palace. In the dead of night, only the sound of the rolling waves beating on the beach, wave by wave, very regular With the sound of the waves, the room suddenly heard an uneasy voice, soft and waxy, with a trace of choking. Shi Shaoqin suddenly opened his eyes and didn''t move, but his narrow eyes were sharp. The soft waxy voice came again intermittently Shi Shaoqin opened the quilt and turned on the light. Without taking care of his shoes, he went to star''s small bed. The little guy''s face was flushed, his breathing was very heavy, and his voice was uncomfortable. Shi Shaoqin felt his hand, and the hot touch made his pupils dilate instantly Chapter 1131 "Star..." Shi Shaoqin called softly. The little guy seemed to feel it. He opened his eyes, looked at Shi Shaoqin vaguely, and immediately shouted, "stone..." But he just shouted softly, and then his eyelids drooped. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and immediately took his mobile phone and called Xi Cheng. Xi Cheng came quickly. Looking at his pajamas, it was obvious that he didn''t even have time to change his clothes. Shi Shaoqin stood aside and watched Xi Cheng check with a simple medical instrument. His eyebrows had been frowned, and a beautiful handsome face was dignified. Time, waiting for a little bit of the past With the continuous confirmation of Xi Cheng, Shi Shaoqin''s face has been shrouded in a strong haze. "Is it a fever?" Shi Shaoqin asked in a low voice when he saw Xi Cheng stop. Xi Cheng''s face was also dignified. Looking at Shi Shaoqin, he shook his head and nodded again. "Is it?" Shi Shaoqin obviously had no patience. "Qin Shao, star looks feverish," Xi Cheng said after pondering, "but whether it is, I have to check..." "What are you delaying?" Shi Shaoqin said discontentedly, came forward, wrapped star in a small blanket and walked out. Xi Cheng didn''t dare to say anything more, so he hurried after Shi Shaoqin. "Stone..." Star''s small mouth kept talking nonsense, and his small face became more and more red. Because of the heat and restlessness, the little guy''s body kept wriggling in Shi Shaoqin''s arms. His always bright eyes were half open, blurred and lax "Good, Xi Cheng will check for you later, huh?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice comforted softly, "the stone will be by your side." "Stone, it hurts..." star groaned, and his eyelids drooped again. Shi Shaoqin was very distressed. From birth to recovery, star hasn''t been ill. If it''s a fever, it''s OK, but now he''s worried that it''s not a normal fever, but other reasons The waves kept rolling in the quiet night, and the dawn under a touch of light faintly overflowed on the east sea line. Xi Cheng has been in the examination room for more than an hour, blood drawing, laboratory test, instrument inspection Shi Shaoqin held star almost all the time. Sick people are always vulnerable, not to mention the little guy? Since Shi Shaoqin held star, the little guy didn''t want to leave When he meets star fan, he always has to stare at him. That almost twisted Shi Shaoqin''s heart. "What''s going on?" As soon as Shi juechi woke up, he heard that star was ill in the middle of the night. He hurried over and saw Qingqing who was anxious at the door. When I heard that, Qin Xi and I got up with red eyes, and then I didn''t know it Shi Jue Chi frowned and looked at the examination room with the door closed. Her face was a little bad. Xu always felt a palpitation when he entered the examination room because of his poor health. It was already daybreak, and the morning light spread lazily on the sea with vitality. He looked at it, but no one appreciated it. The sound of "drop" came. Xi Cheng hardly stopped, so he hurried to get the printed list of the test results. He looked at the figures and indicators above with burning eyes. At the end, he breathed out "How''s it going?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was dignified and had no patience. Xi Cheng grinned, "star should just have a normal fever, not caused by drug sequelae!" As a result, Xi Cheng not only breathed out secretly, but also let Shi Shaoqin''s heart hang down gradually. In order to save star, he had been hanging his life with drugs before. Every medicine has three poisons. No matter Xi Cheng or Shi Shaoqin, what he fears most is the sequelae. Shi Shaoqin looked at star who had fallen asleep in his arms. The haze on Junyan gradually dissipated, and a shallow smile gradually overflowed from the corners of his mouth "You''re fine, just fine!" Shi Shaoqin murmured. There is a trace of loneliness in the loose voice, as if afraid of losing Xi Cheng looked at the man who had gone through all the ups and downs, and felt distressed. He was suddenly afraid. If one day Gu Beichen and Jian Mo knew the existence of star and had to take the little guy away, how pathetic would Qin Shao be?! He is lonely and lonely. Star is just like his spiritual sustenance of looking for sunshine now. With star, there is a little light If not, Qin Shao will be completely in the dark! No one does not yearn for sunshine, but in this world, there are always dark places where sunshine cannot be found Star just has a fever. The result is good for Shi Shaoqin and Shi juechi, who is worried about star being brought into the examination room. Xi Cheng is there. The anti fever drugs configured are to minimize the damage Moreover, since star began to live in Mo palace, it has long been equipped with relative children''s medical facilities and personnel. "Qin Shao..." Qing Qing handed Shi Shaoqin the cooling ice bag wrapped in a towel. After Shi Shaoqin changed star, he slightly adjusted his posture lying in his arms Star never left in Shi Shaoqin''s arms. One is that once Shi Shaoqin wants to put down the little guy, the little guy starts to ''hum''. On the other hand, Shi Shaoqin was not willing to leave him alone when he was ill. Shi juechi handed Shi Shaoqin a glass of water and sat down His eyes fell on star''s flushed little face and sighed. Shaoqin relies on star, but does star not rely on Shaoqin? ¡­¡­ "Well..." Jane Mo''s closed eyes tightened tightly. She wanted to open them, but she couldn''t open them, as if she had been dragged by a nightmare "Xiao Yan..." Jian Mo''s breath was disorderly, and the whole look was tangled under pain. Gradually, Jianmo''s forehead overflowed with fine beads of sweat, and her hand unconsciously placed on her bulging stomach and curled up slightly In the dream, a child was playing by the sea. She wants to get close, but she can''t get close It was very close, but she just couldn''t get to the child. Jane Mo was very anxious. She shouted ''Xiaoyan'' while speeding up her steps. But I don''t know why, the distance from the child, no matter how hard she tries, is not far or near, and has not changed at all Jane Mo''s eyebrows screwed up. She slowly stopped, and the child ''giggled'' at her. "Xiao Yan..." Jian Mo shouted. The child is still ''giggling'' at her. In that way, she is very innocent. Suddenly The waves lost their calm, the wind was strong, and suddenly a big wave surged towards the child Jane Mo immediately widened her eyes and shouted at the child who was about to be swept by the waves: "Xiao Yan..." Chapter 1132 "Ah --" Jane Mo suddenly screamed and suddenly sat up, staring at the front with her eyes lax and gasping. The door of the lounge was suddenly opened and Gu Beichen came in. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen went to the bedside and looked at Jane Mo''s frightened face and the sweat on her forehead. "What''s the matter? Have a nightmare?" Gu Beichen asked softly. Jian Mo''s thoughts were unstable. After watching Gu Beichen for a while, she gradually recovered her thoughts She didn''t want to cheat Gu Beichen, but she didn''t want him to know that she dreamed of Xiao Yan. She hasn''t had such a dream for a long time. Although she occasionally misses Xiao Yan, she has never had such a treacherous dream Jane Mo swallowed and felt that she must be afraid of the baby in her stomach and lost it for her own reasons, resulting in a dream under pressure. "Well..." Jane nodded. "I''m dreaming!" She admitted having a nightmare, but did not say what she had done. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil stared at Jian Mo deeply. Seeing that she didn''t want to be specific, she didn''t ask, but gently wiped the beads of sweat on Jian Mo''s forehead "It''s said that pregnant women tend to be restless and have nightmares..." Gu Beichen said gently, "I wasn''t with you before. You must be very hard." Full of self reproach, there is a trace of loss. Jane morhu put her mouth around Gu Beichen and said softly, "you''re by my side now. The previous hard work is not hard..." Gu Beichen smiled and grabbed Jian Mo and gently kissed her on the top of her hair. Years are quiet and good, accompanied by a wife and children... It''s good. However, Gu Beichen, who was accompanying his wife at the moment, hung all the people who held the video conference there ¡­¡­ Mo palace. After the recuperation of the doctor and Xi Cheng and the care of Shi Shaoqin, star''s fever subsided in the afternoon. He had a good sleep in Shi Shaoqin''s arms. The little guy looked much better at dinner. "Hungry..." as soon as star woke up, he said with a groan. Shi Shaoqin''s pretty mouth overflowed with a smile. Looking at the wronged look on the little guy''s face, he said in a distressed soft voice: "Qingqing asked the kitchen to cook porridge for you, and I''ll send it over." "Eat, stone eat!" Star''s voice is a little hoarse because of fever. Shi Shaoqin''s heart was warm. Without refutation, he nodded and replied, "OK, stone and star will eat together." Star Xu knew that Shi Shaoqin had been holding him. When he went to the restaurant, he had to come down and walk by himself. But because of a fever and a cold, it was obvious that he was a little weak. Shi Shaoqin was distressed and bent over to hold star again, but the little guy shook his head and had to go by himself. "I''ll come..." Shi juechi just came to see star. When she saw star, she squatted and wanted to hold her. But the little guy dodged, holding Shi Shaoqin''s pants in his small hand, with obvious resistance in his eyes. "Go by yourself!" Star tooted his mouth and showed stubbornness. I don''t know why, Shi Jue Chi seemed to understand the meaning of the little guy at once. It was a kind of dependence on Shaoqin, and he was distressed. Shaoqin always held his emotions. It''s no wonder Shaoqin softened his heart "OK, go by yourself..." Shi Shaoqin spoiled and said. He simply led star and walked slowly to the restaurant. Generally, when children are ill, they are always grumpy and sticky. Star is no exception. But he''s sticky, but he''s smarter than usual. Clearly eating the tasteless porridge is a little painful, but the little guy is still eating quietly After two days, star is fine. Qingqing is bored and will mention it. Star said to Qingqing with a strange look: "if you don''t eat, stone is worried, so eat!" Qingqing''s nose was sour at that time. She thought that such a sensible little guy would marry in the future. Can you give her a dozen?! Chatting from big to small, I didn''t find Shi Shaoqin Unlike Qingqing, Shi Shaoqin''s heart is softened into a pool of lake water. He wants to give star the best in the world. ¡­¡­ "Chen Ju, when are you going to work?" Lu Xiaowei asked after reporting the technical report to Chen Yu. "What do you want to do?" Chen Yu filed the files. Lu Xiaowei said "hey hey" twice vaguely, "it''s about you and brother Yu!" Chen Yu looked back at Lu Xiaowei, "what''s none of your business?" "..." Lu Xiaowei choked. "Of course, it''s none of my business. Yu Gong and I are in the same department. Yu private also has revolutionary friendship, right?!" He grinned. "Besides, I''m the one who witnessed you with brother Yu?!" Chen Shu shrugged and didn''t answer. She closed the cupboard and looked at the time. She was about to get off work. Last night, after ye Chenyu told her mother that he was the "future son-in-law", she was tragically called back by her father for interrogation. Of course, in order not to let the budding love be trampled under the cruel claws of her father, she just said to find a boyfriend yesterday, but she didn''t say it was a system. Her understanding of her father is definitely not willing to find a system Therefore, he has to wait until he is happy that his daughter is enlightened. Therefore, there should be strategic breakthroughs and deployment. At this moment, Chen Yu never thought that she knew Chen Qishan, but she didn''t know that ye Chenyu had offended him because of her! "Well, what step has it come to?" Lu Xiaowei pushed his glasses. "Is there... Uh huh?!" Looking at Lu Xiaowei''s obscene appearance, Chen Yu pulled a smile of skin smile and meat not smile at the corners of his mouth, then closed it, and asked in a dignified voice, "uh huh... What is it?" Lu Xiaowei was secretly swallowed by Chen Yu''s eyes, but at the thought of his "heavy responsibility", he could only harden his head and ask, "that''s..." He clenched his teeth and looked desperate. "Just according to brother Yu''s temperament, Qiao Rui said, you also hit a home run last night." Since you''re going to die, you have to drag one. He can''t rush to the front. Qiao Rui can steal music after gossip Chen Yu''s eyes flickered, and the corners of his mouth gradually overflowed with laughter. Lu Xiaowei immediately felt fluffy. Although after this mission, he has a good relationship with Chen Yu But the superior and subordinate are the superior and subordinate. It''s no problem to ask brother Yu directly. Ask Chen Yu how he feels that he can wear a lot of small shoes next. But he lost his bet last night, and it was hard to ride a tiger. "Want to know?" Chen Yu walked to Lu Xiaowei and smiled deeply Lu Xiaowei felt the strong force and swallowed it uncontrollably. He wanted to say: no more However, due to the gambling game, he still took off his pants and drew Tintin. He felt that under the dignity, he could only die in the hands of Chen Yu. "Report," Lu Xiaowei said with a desperate look, "I''d like to know if you and brother Yu had sex last night!" While his words fell, the director of the Eastern District suddenly opened the door of Chen''s office Chen Chen and Lu Xiaowei looked sideways and saw the director''s mouth like a quail egg, looking at them in surprise Chapter 1133 Lu Xiaowei looked bitter and felt that he was really "looking for death"! Chen Chen is a little embarrassed. After all, it''s working time... It''s still a subordinate talking to her about such a problem. The director of the Eastern District closed his surprised mouth. It was Lao Jiang. He restrained his amazement and asked calmly, "well, shall I avoid it first until you have settled this problem?" "No!" Lu Xiaowei hurriedly looked up, then looked at Chen Shu, grinned secretly, and hurried out with an embarrassed face. When the chief passed by, his face turned red and he slipped away. "Director..." Chen Yu was a little angry. The director of the East District grinned and went in, sat down in the chair in front of the desk and motioned Chen. After making tea, Chen Yu sat down, covered up his embarrassment and asked, "what''s the matter with the director?" "Just downstairs, I stopped by to talk about ye Chenyu..." the director of the east district took a sip of tea and looked at Chen with a smile, "but now it seems that we need to see what you mean?" "Huh?" Chen Yu was puzzled. The director of the Eastern District smiled more and more brightly, "in the end, the special police force is the first line of defense of the police force. We can''t put both of you in the front..." He didn''t say anything clearly, but it was ambiguous. Chen Yu reacted at once. "Director..." Chen Yu had a headache. "Ye Chenyu''s decision is not what I can do!" "It''s all right. I''ll see your opinion first." The director of the Eastern District didn''t see Chen Yu''s embarrassment at all. "You talk about your ideas, both public and private." "..." Chen Shuo smiled at the corners of his mouth. "Yu Gong, I still want him to stay in the special police force, but you have to do this job." The director of the Eastern District said, "Yu private, I can understand if you don''t want him to stay in that post. After all, it should be a time of stability in the front line for so many years..." Chen Chen listened to the director of the Eastern District talking. Although what he said was reasonable, she didn''t know why. She just felt that the director was starting from the direction of gossip at the moment. Sure enough "Well, when are you going to work?" The director of the Eastern District suddenly sighed, "you two ask for marriage leave together. The work on the Eastern District has to be deployed in advance..." "How can it be so fast?" Chen Chen is no longer able to refute this question. "That''s all... What, don''t you plan to get married?" The director of the eastern district was surprised. "Xiao Yu, I''m going to criticize you. Although you have a strong working heart, it''s a big event and can''t be delayed." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu can''t laugh or cry. Where is this?! "A few days ago, when I met President Chen, I also mentioned your life event to me..." the director of the Eastern District said, "our police force is not so inhumane. It doesn''t conflict to get married and start a business!" Chen Yu didn''t know what to say. Listening to the director from ye Chenyu''s work thought to her family concept and thought at the moment, Chen Yu''s heart is just a group of grass and mud horses galloping "I understand the director''s meaning," Chen said with a dark sigh, "but I respect his opinion whether he should continue to stay." The director of the Eastern District looked at Chen Yu and waited for her to continue. "He is suitable for the post of striker. After all, his experience cannot be copied..." Chen''s voice is very calm. "The most important thing is that he likes it very much." After a pause, she thought of the last action to arrest madder In the eyes, there is a heartache that cannot be concealed. "Personally, I really don''t want him to remain in that position." Chen Yu raised his lower lip, "but if that''s what he likes, how can I not let him continue because of my worry?" The director of the Eastern District restrained his joking mind and sighed, "in fact, I can''t bear to..." "I''ll talk to him about this problem." Chen Yu understood the meaning of the director of the Eastern District, "well, talk about public and private." The director of the Eastern District immediately laughed "ha ha". "This week, the Lu bureau is also very concerned about the results..." the director of the Eastern District stood up. "Of course, if you can hand in your invitation together, I think the Lu bureau is also happy to see." Chen Yu held his forehead with helplessness on his face. The director of the eastern district did not continue to joke, "well, don''t delay your work..." The words fell, and the man had turned and walked out. Chen Chen sent the director to leave and looked at the time. It was time to get off work. He simply went to the dressing room to change his clothes and get off work. When the talent came out of the office building, he saw the door "encircling" the people from work in the East District. They were laughing and didn''t know what they were talking about? Chen Yu frowned slightly and walked over curiously, "what are you doing standing here..." Then he looked in the direction indicated by the crowd. Ye Chenyu leaned against his car and didn''t know what he was talking about with Zhang Chao, vice captain of the criminal police team. "Chen Bureau, it''s been a whole day since you two got involved in this bureau..." someone said, "aren''t you going to solve your doubts?" As soon as Chen Yu saw what he said, everyone''s eyes were as bright as catching a criminal, and some were unable to cry or laugh. "Well, as you can see..." Chen Yu was a little proud. "I''m going to raise Ye Chenyu!" Then she didn''t care about those chins. Because of surprise, the people in the east area who were about to hit the instep walked proudly to Ye Chenyu "OK, that''s it." Zhang Chao said. Ye Chenyu hung his lips and nodded. Zhang Chao saw Chen Yu coming, "Chen Bureau, I''ll go first..." After greeting, he and ye Chenyu nodded again and then turned to their car. "What are you talking about?" Chen Yu is curious. Ye Chenyu looked at Zhang Chao''s back. "If I say... I ask him to help me stare at you, do you believe it?" "The devil believes!" Chen Yu rolled his eyes and walked in the direction of the co pilot consciously. Ye Chenyu was very satisfied with her movements, and regardless of a group of people whistling at him, he got into the car. "I''ll accompany you to the next meal." Ye Chenyu starts the car. Chen Yu frowned slightly, "what meal?" Ye Chenyu glanced at her and said with a smile, "don''t you know when you arrive..." "Oh..." Chen Ying answered without asking more, but said, "the director just asked me about you." "Yes." Ye Chenyu answered lazily, without much emotion. Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu and felt that he didn''t really want to talk about this issue, so he didn''t go on. It''s private time now. I''d better leave this business until tomorrow. Eat wait! Chen Yu suddenly realized something, widened his eyes and asked, "Ye Chenyu, isn''t your meal with your mother?" Chapter 1134 Ye Chenyu glanced at Chen Yu, and the smile on the corner of his mouth became evil and flattering, but he didn''t answer. Chen Yu wrung his eyebrows. "Isn''t it too fast?" She said, somewhat at a loss, "I''m not ready... Is there any problem with my wearing this? Let''s go shopping first? What if I don''t have a good impression when I first meet?" Ye Chenyu''s smile deepened and he still didn''t speak. Chen Yu has fallen into her own thoughts, and she has no experience in this field. Although she has heard a lot, she is nervous about seeing her future mother-in-law. She doesn''t know what to do? "Is it better to buy some bird''s nest or some fruit?" Chen Yu said to himself, always unable to pay attention. She looked at Ye Chenyu who was driving. "Ye Chenyu, what does aunt like at ordinary times? If you want to see Aunt, why don''t you tell me in advance so that I can be prepared..." Ye Chenyu''s smile at the corners of his mouth became more evil and ruffian with Chen''s increasingly nervous appearance, "Chen, are you dry?" "Huh?" Chen Yu was stunned and looked at Ye Chenyu with a confused face. Ye Chenyu glanced at her and asked jokingly, "when will I tell you that today''s dinner is to see my mother?" "..." Chen Yu''s head got stuck. "You are so anxious to see my mother. How much do you want to be my daughter-in-law?" Ye Chenyu asked ruffian. Chen Yu twitched at the corner of his mouth, "Ye, Chen, Yu!" The words gnashing teeth are squeezed out of the teeth one by one, "you did it on purpose." "I didn''t say anything..." Ye Chenyu''s tone was obviously teasing. "You can only say that you want to marry me too much, so you''re anxious to see your future mother-in-law and want to please..." The more Ye Chenyu said, the more he slipped away. Chen Yu was ashamed and angry. If ye Chenyu wasn''t driving at the moment, she would be able to kick it "Angry?" When ye Chenyu saw that Chen Yu looked out of the window, his body was tight. Chen Yu ignored Ye Chenyu and wondered why once a woman is in love, her IQ is not online But I thought for a long time, but there was no result. Sure enough, women are emotional animals! Ye Chenyu pulled over and stopped the car. His arm was slightly supported on the steering wheel. Looking at Chen''s face reflected on the car glass, the smile at the corners of his mouth became more and more evil. "Tell me first, what was the result of your joint examination last night?" Ye Chenyu asked. Chen Yu looked back at Ye Chenyu, as if he didn''t care about him. "Didn''t you tell your parents about me?!" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows with confidence in his eyes. Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu in surprise, some of whom couldn''t believe it. "Chen Yu, while you are worried about whether my mother will accept you or not, you have to calculate whether your parents will accept me..." Ye Chenyu restrained the evil ruffian''s smile, "are you tired?" "What do you mean?" Chen Yu frowned and had a warning at the bottom of her eyes for fear that ye Chenyu would say something that would hurt her. "I don''t have any male chauvinism, but it''s up to me to bear it. Let my woman bear it. Are you too thorough?" Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu quietly, as if he didn''t understand what he was talking about, but he seemed to understand. "My mother''s side, you think, you should!" Ye Chenyu put his hand on Chen Yu''s hand, "but your parents should be considered by me..." "I just..." "You''re just afraid that my self-esteem will be hurt?" Ye Chenyu took Chen Yu''s words. Chen did not admit or deny it. Although it is said that parents will not have the concept of family status, they will never want her to find a system, or a dangerous position such as front-line combat "If I can''t face your parents, how can I talk about sharing life and death with you in the future?" Ye Chenyu drooped his eyes and tore Chen Yu''s hand with his fingers. Although often maintained, Chen''s hands are not delicate enough compared with the women in the rich family. Even, because of training and often touching the gun, the palm has scar marks and cocoons. But it is such a touch that makes Ye Chenyu comfortable. Feeling Ye Chenyu''s action, Chen Yu calmed down, "I just don''t want to waste my time on confrontation. I want to be with you without burden, and I don''t want my parents to object." Although, she knows very well that as long as she insists, her father and mother can only let her. But she hopes they can accept Ye Chenyu and her hero. "Chen Chen," Ye Chenyu raised his eyes and looked up at Chen Chen''s eyes, "this is not what you should worry about. You should worry about how you get along with your future mother-in-law and how to please her..." With that, he fanned his eyes with evil ruffian. "Well, I heard that the more mother-in-law looks at her son-in-law, the more pleasing she looks... The mother-in-law can''t see her daughter-in-law right." Ye Chenyu sat upright and started the car again. "You don''t think about how to deal with your mother-in-law right now. You have so many thoughts!" "..." Chen Yu took a breath from the corner of his mouth, "Ye Chenyu, are you so comforting?" "Huh?" "You asked me to put down my parents'' burden, but you told me about the relationship between mother-in-law and daughter-in-law..." "Eh, isn''t this a difficult problem from ancient times to the present?" "Yes..." Chen Yu said bitterly. "In fact, I''m very strange. Why is there a disagreement between mother-in-law and daughter-in-law?" "Because your future mother-in-law taught me to wear clothes for several years, and it only takes a few seconds for you to turn back and let me take off my clothes..." Ye Chenyu said evil. "..." Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu and said again, speechless: "dirty Chenyu... You''re right!" The originally worried mood was suddenly relaxed because of Ye Chenyu''s words. Along the way, they developed a profound discussion on the word "pollution". Of course, on this issue, no matter how tough our sister is, she can''t beat Ye Chenyu who lives in a mixed environment. Finally, the battle ended with Ye Chenyu''s sentence "why don''t we go to open a house first and see if I''m happy or you''re happy". ¡­¡­ "I won''t drink it today. There will be a meeting tomorrow morning..." Lu said hurriedly when he saw that Chen Qishan was going to open the wine, "just get some red to help the fun." "This bottle is hoarded, waiting for you to drive..." Chen Qishan continued to drive the Baijiu, "not much to drink, just to taste." He said with a smile, "besides, if you have a meeting tomorrow, you can still smell like wine all night!" Lu Bureau laughed. Look at the bottle of wine in Chen Qishan''s hand. It''s also greedy. He has no other hobbies. He likes to drink a little wine. He also likes to have a good time in vain. What''s more, the chef of the Chen family made wine and vegetables to his appetite, and Lu Bureau was not shirking it. Three rounds of wine and five flavors of dishes. Chen Qishan and Xie Zhenru looked at each other and listened to Xie Zhenru ask, "Lao Lu, how''s Xiaoyu recently?" "Well, the young man has courage and ability. Seriously... If you support her in the police force, I guarantee her great future." Lu Ju likes Chen Yu from the bottom of his heart, which has nothing to do with personal friendship. "But girls, who are in charge all day..." Xie Zhenru said angrily with a dissatisfied smile. "I don''t know how to find a boyfriend or something." "Who said she didn''t know what to look for?" Lu Bureau stared, "that little girl, the task and personal problems are the same." "What do you mean?" Chen Qishan hurriedly asked, "it seems that Xiao Yu is looking for someone and didn''t tell us?" Lu Bureau smiled and said, "estimated!" Xie Zhenru looked at Chen Qishan again. She pushed the boat along the river and asked, "Xiao Yu doesn''t tell us... Lao Lu, who is she looking for? You must know when you say so!" Chapter 1135 "All the people under me, of course I know..." Lu Bureau said with a smile, "Xiao Yu has a good eye. He''s a good man!" Chen Qishan and Xie Zhenru looked at each other and found a policeman for Chen. It seemed like an accident, but it was not an accident. After all, because of what happened to Uncle Lin in those years, she had a difficult feeling for the police What''s more, I have more contact with a bunch of police all day, and I can really see each other. It''s just that they don''t want Chen to find a system "Lao Lu, there are not many people you praise!" Chen Qishan poured another glass of wine for Lu Bureau. Lu Ju nodded approvingly. His face was slightly drunk, but it was hard to hide his appreciation in his eyes. "Well, Lao Chen should have an impression..." Lu Bureau said with a smile, "it''s Ye Chenyu who went out with Xiao Yu... Seriously, you can rest assured, this young man is absolutely good..." "Who are you talking about?" Chen Qishan raised his voice slightly. "Ye Chenyu..." Lu Bureau said with a smile, "the one you and I wanted to call last time." As soon as Chen Qishan heard this, his eyes burst out uncontrollable anger. Lu Ju Xu talked about ye Chenyu. Xu drank wine and didn''t find anything wrong with Chen Qishan. He just boasted about ye Chenyu. When he arrived, he looked at Chen Qishan solemnly and asked, "I said, Lao Chen, you have a big family and a big career. Don''t you look down on our little police?" After all, Chen Qishan climbed out of the mall. Naturally, he won''t explain these things to Lu Bureau. He just said with a laugh: "Xiao Yu hasn''t told me yet. How can he wait for his daughter to say..." Lu Ju smiled and patted Chen Qishan on the shoulder, "Ye Chenyu''s character and ability, I promise, the rest... How do you test your son-in-law? It''s your parents..." "Yes, yes, yes!" Chen Qishan smiled, "come on, drink first!" "Come on..." Lu Ju raised his glass and drank it up. "Don''t talk about the cellar. It''s really refreshing." "I''ll get some fruit..." Xie Zhenru looked at the two people drinking to their fullest, smiled and said, controlling the wheelchair and went to the kitchen. However, without taking a few steps, she looked back at Chen Qishan and looked worried. It''s an old husband and wife. She knows how precious her man is to her daughter. They all value men over women, but Lao Chen is a woman who despises men When she was a child, she suffered like that again. Old Chen Baobao''s daughter is very precious. How can she be willing to make it hard to marry a policeman?! The most important thing is that if she remembered correctly, it seems that Lao Chen and ye Chenyu had a "holiday" before?! Xie Zhenru sighed secretly. She always felt that this matter might lead to war at home. Sure enough After arranging for the driver to send Lu to leave, Chen Qishan began to call Chen. But after several calls, no one answered! "Xiaoyu is estimated to be on duty..." Xie Zhenru said with relief. "What shift are you on?" Chen Qishan stared and said angrily, "I was hiding from you yesterday for fear that I would know who it was... Well, I won''t answer my phone right now. Is she going to turn the world upside down?!" Xie Zhenru looked at the angry Chen Qishan and smiled, "when your daughter didn''t find someone, you were worried. Now you find it, and you don''t agree..." "Anyone can, that is Ye Chenyu. I firmly oppose it!" Chen Qishan reluctantly dialed Chen Yu''s phone again, but no one answered. Finally, simply shut down Chen Qishan has no place to vent his anger. At present, Chen Yu and ye Chenyu, who are surrounded by a group of people, have no sense of crisis at all. "Sister Chen, you have to drink this wine today, whether you drink it or not..." Qiao Rui said without discussion. "You have to show the momentum of the overlord flower of the police force, don''t you "Don''t bully her..." Lu Xiaowei quit immediately as his mother''s family. But can he let go of the booing?! The answer is'' no ''! "These two people are not only acting in a play when they are on duty, but also pretending to play a real game... Today, sister Yu can''t drink the wine alone. Why should brother Yu accompany me?!" Lu Xiaowei and Qiao Rui winked and immediately attracted everyone''s laughter. "Drinking, who am I afraid of?" Chen Yu picked up the wine on the table. But before it was delivered to his mouth, ye Chenyu grabbed it "Do you have any sense of supporting me?" Ye Chenyu said evil, "I''m your little white face. Of course, I''ll give you a long face on such an occasion. I''ll drink it!" Everyone looked at each other, and then burst into laughter Of course, when Chen Yu and ye Chenyu were caught, all kinds of jokes kept going on. In particular, those who are not on duty tomorrow are even more powerful. They have the posture of directly intoxicating Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu. But they don''t know ye Chenyu. If a man who has been undercover for so many years and wanders in the dark world all day, if he gets drunk casually, how many things can he miss?! Chen Yu didn''t drink much. Most of them were replaced by Ye Chenyu "Can you still drink?" Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu with some worry. Ye Chenyu may have drunk wine. His eyes are as evil as a fox. He put his arm on Chen Yu''s shoulder. With a ruffian smile in his mouth, he asked, "is it painful?" "The ghost loves you..." Chen Shu glanced. "Alas..." when ye Chenyu heard this, he sighed deeply. "Women''s heart, submarine needle... Just like duplicity." Chen Yu blushed and stared at Ye Chenyu angrily. Ye Chenyu''s vision became blurred. He didn''t know whether it was the wine or the feminine charm of Chen Chen at the moment. He felt a fire burning in his inner abdomen. Someone felt something wrong with Ye Chenyu and asked, "brother Yu is estimated to have drunk too much..." "We take turns to fight. We''re almost down. If brother Yu is still straight, how humiliating we must be!" "Yes, yes, yes..." Laughing one by one, Chen Yu looked at her and stared at her. Ye Chenyu was a little hairy. "Are you really drunk?" Chen asked, "shall I take you back?" Ye Chenyu didn''t answer, but narrowed his eyes slightly. A pair of eyes, looking at Chen Yu''s wriggling lips because of talking, I only feel dry mouth. "Ye Chenyu?" Chen Chen is a little worried. After all, after high-intensity detoxification for so long, the body has not fully recovered, and drank so much wine The more he thought about it, the more worried he became. He wrung his eyebrows and gently shook Ye Chenyu, "Ye Chenyu... Huh!" Chen Yu didn''t shake. Fortunately, this shake completely confused Ye Chenyu''s heart and eyes. He even forgot the occasion and the crowd. He just fished Chen Yu''s head and mouth... And fell on her lips Chapter 1136 "Ow, ow..." "Hissing..." The people who used to call for drinking suddenly stared at Ye Chenyu one by one because of his behavior No one felt embarrassed and stared at them. Chen Yu also widened her eyes. She knew Ye Chenyu was a ruffian, but she didn''t expect them to kiss in front of her subordinates! Chen Yu is shy and dry, but his heart is throbbing and jumping. That kind of positive and negative sensory consciousness and spiritual jump made her don''t know what to do. Ye Chenyu did not care, but kissed Chen Yu mercilessly. At this moment, it seems to be really drunk Isn''t there a saying that everyone gets drunk when he''s not drunk?! I''m afraid that''s the case with him right now. Chen Chen is good-looking. After living and dying together and the dark company, ye Chenyu clearly knows that this woman is what he wants. Unlike Li Xiaoyue, with Mo Shaochen, he will give in. But Chen Yu, who is it... He doesn''t want to let me know. Not grateful, just feel suitable Even if there is no solemn vows and crazy love, he knows what he wants. The lingering and domineering kiss made Chen completely forget his thinking and could only be guided by Ye Chenyu. At this moment, Chen is also crazy. Let subordinates watch them kiss deeply on the spot However, this is Ye Chenyu, who looks evil but never does anything special. At this moment, he is "Crazy" for her, isn''t he? "I''m embarrassed to see..." Lu Xiaowei said, but pushed his eyes, which looked more bright. Qiao Rui shook his head, "who pinched the watch..." "Me!" Someone answered. "Lying in the trough, someone really pinches the watch..." Qiao Rui scolded with a smile. The people were talking and appreciating Only Yang Jinyu silently poured a glass of wine and drank it up. "Ka!" Just as ye Chenyu let go of Chen Yu, who was almost unable to breathe, Qiao Rui made a sound. "2 minutes and 7 seconds!" "Tut tut..." Qiao Rui suddenly covered his eyes. "It''s so long. I must wash my eyes when I go back tonight. What if I don''t grow a needle eye?" Suddenly, everyone learned from Qiao Rui and laughed one by one. Chen Chen''s face is a little red. But ye Chenyu said whatever you want. I''m happy. Ye Chenyu looked as if he was looking for a crack in the ground. Chen Yu said lazily, "stop!" The people who were joking stopped immediately. But everyone has a smile on his face and ambiguous eyes. "Then what, you continue..." said Ye Chenyu. The man had got up, pulled Chen Yu, took her bag and went out. "Hey, brother Yu, sister Yu, are you leaving now?" Lu Xiaowei reacted. "My account, you help yourself!" Ye Chenyu didn''t look back. What else did Lu Xiaowei want to say, but Qiao Rui pulled him down. "Brother Yu," said Qiao Rui badly, "you''ve all drunk. Don''t drive... There''s a hotel across the road!" "..." Chen Yu immediately said nothing, turned back and glared at Qiao Rui. Qiao Rui is not afraid to die. "Otherwise, we''ll book a room online for you to cheer up today." Chen Yu was a little ready to cry. If she didn''t know ye Chenyu''s prestige in the eyes of these people, she would doubt that these people make fun of them. Can they hold these people when they are on a mission? "OK, just opposite!" Just when Chen Yu was going to frighten Qiao Rui, ye Chenyu answered. "..." Chen Yu was speechless immediately. It''s not that she has any rejection of premarital sex, but that they are so generous. Is it really good? Really good?! Chen Yu has a headache "Brother Yu, it''s not fun!" Qiao Rui felt bored when he saw that ye Chenyu didn''t care at all. Ye Chenyu smiled, didn''t say anything, and pulled Chen out of the box. "You know they''re joking on purpose?" Chen Chen is a little depressed. Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu. "When I was a child, I especially liked to put caterpillars in girls'' stationery boxes every spring..." Chen Yu frowned. He didn''t know how ye Chenyu got involved in this. But she felt that ye Chenyu could do such a thing "At first glance, you are the kind of bully." Chen Yu hummed. Ye Chenyu continued with a laugh: "the more scared I see girls, the more I like to scare them." "..." Chen Yu was speechless. But think about it. It seems that there was such a man when I was a child. "Later, a girl was very brave..." Ye Chenyu thought of what happened when she was a child and couldn''t help laughing. "She wasn''t afraid of caterpillars, but also grabbed caterpillars and shook in front of me!" Chen Yu immediately grinned. Girls are generally afraid of that kind of soft things, disgusting! "Later, I didn''t scare her." Ye Chenyu smiled and shook his head. "However, I later learned that she was afraid of those things... She deliberately did that in front of me just to make me feel boring." Chen Yu reacted, "so, Qiao Rui, they''re joking, you agree, and they''ll feel boring." "Yes." Ye Chenyu held Chen''s hand tightly. "I don''t care. I can drive whatever I want... But you obviously can''t stand it." Chen Yu was moved by his teasing words. He seems drunk and crazy However, he thought for her very carefully. What if it''s not magnificent? This insipid move made her palpitation. "Walk with me..." Ye Chenyu didn''t call Daijia, so he took Chen''s hand and walked along the sidewalk. He suddenly became silent, and Chen Chen also silently felt the temperature in the palm of his hand... He walked for a long time, and no one spoke. However, such a walk makes each other feel each other quietly, as if something in their heart began to rise slowly, warm! Night, more and more heavy. But the pedestrians and cars on the street didn''t seem to reduce by half "If it rains and snows, what kind of weather do you like to walk together like this?" Ye Chenyu looked ahead and asked. Chen Yu glanced at Ye Chenyu, did not answer, but fanned his eyes. Ye Chenyu glanced at her, and the fundus of his eyes was obviously evil. "I like snowy days..." Ye Chenyu said faintly. Chen Yu frowned slightly. She felt that a wicked man like Ye Chenyu, no matter it rained or snowed, should not belong to someone who likes to walk hand in hand with women. Affectation! Well, most men don''t want to flirt with women. "Why?" Chen asked curiously. Ye Chenyu smiled at the corners of his mouth. Faintly, it was his usual evil charm, "because when it snows, when you walk like this, you come to white head..." Chen Yu felt that his heart burst instantly and was filled with Ye Chenyu''s "love words". She stopped unconsciously, and a thin layer of water mist filled her eyes. Whether it''s the words on the napkin or at this moment, ye Chenyu just sent her a message He wants to grow old with her! "Suddenly it''s raining," Chen said Chapter 1137 Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu with deep eyes and asked in a magnetic voice, "do you like rain?" Chen Yu was alert and inexplicable. She was a little afraid of falling into Ye Chenyu''s pit. After all, this man is very ruffian. Ye Chenyu''s smile didn''t disperse. A pair of eyes coagulated deeply and bewitched people. Chen Yu sighed secretly and felt that if ye Chenyu painted the ground as a prison, she couldn''t escape his net at all. Ye Chenyu didn''t speak, just waiting for Chen Yu to answer. Chen Yu hung her eyes slightly and pondered. She thought that since Ye Chenyu gave her a choice, it was impossible to be sure that she would choose snow. What if she chooses to rain?! The snow is white, and it rains Chen Yu''s heart had some expectations. Although, she just had no choice. "That..." Chen raised his eyes and asked the corner of his mouth, "what''s the rain?" Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu''s eyes and couldn''t hide his expectation. The ruffian smile at the corners of his mouth gradually deepened. "If it rains and goes together, isn''t it water in his head?" "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth and was unable to accept. "Have you ever seen snow walking hand in hand, letting the snow fall on your body, or walking hand in hand without an umbrella in the rain and pouring it into a drowned chicken?" Ye Chenyu asked with a smile. Chen Yu has a black face and immediately knows that she has been fooled by Ye Chenyu Ye Chenyu looked at the angry Chen Yu, raised one side of his mouth, raised his hand and gently flicked it on her forehead. Then he took her hand and went on. Chen Chen is a little depressed. The answer of snow is so romantic. Why is the answer of rain so... Beat?! "Ye Chenyu..." "Huh?!" "Are you sure you haven''t lost your mind because you''ve drunk too much?" Chen Yu said gloomily, "or did you get alcohol directly?!" "Hmm..." Ye Chenyu suddenly stopped and leaned over slightly, with some pain on his face. Chen Yu was stunned at first, then his face was startled and hurriedly asked, "what''s the matter with you? Is there something wrong with you? Or do you want to vomit?" Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu sideways, his eyes blurred, his eyebrows wrinkled, and his eyes were hot. Chen Yu looked worried. She hasn''t dealt with drunken people, of course, except criminals who make trouble by drinking. "You..." "I feel so bad!" Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth and said. Hearing what he said, Chen Yu''s face changed. "You, what''s wrong with you?" Chen asked anxiously, "I''ll take you to the hospital..." With that, she wanted to stop the car by the side of the road. But the talent moved and was pulled back by Ye Chenyu. Chen Yu had a question at the bottom of his eyes. He saw Ye Chenyu put her hand on his chest. While feeling his heartbeat, he said with a smile: "I don''t feel it. It''s on fire..." "Huh?!" Chen Yu was overwhelmed by Ye Chenyu''s actions. Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu, who was as ignorant as a little girl at the moment. The heat in the bottom of his eyes turned into tenderness, but his voice said: "I got into alcohol, and then I had sparks in my heart. I just burned too vigorously, so..." He didn''t go on, but looked at Chen Yu from ignorance to anger and smiled. "You play with me again!" Chen Chen gritted his teeth. Ye Chenyu straightened up, looked at Chen Chen''s angry look, and smiled more. "You still study psychology. This will make you turn around." Hearing this, Chen Yu immediately opened his mouth. Just now I was just angry, but now I was filled with uncontrollable anger. She knows that she should be rational. Ye Chenyu is such a evil and ruffian person However, I don''t know why, she just can''t control it at the moment. I don''t know whether it''s because I confessed first or because I''ve experienced so much. Now it is developing so fast, in fact, Chen Yu has no bottom at all. "Is it fun?" Chen Yu asked. Her voice was calm, but people felt her unhappiness. Ye Chenyu frowned slightly, and Chen Shuo smiled at the corners of his mouth. There was not much temperature. Pull out the hand in Ye Chenyu''s palm, and Chen Yu turns around and wants to leave However, when he moved, he was pulled back by Ye Chenyu and embraced into his arms. Chen Yu''s nose is sour and some want to cry. She felt that she was weak in front of love. Obviously, she should be tough at the moment, but as soon as ye Chenyu hugged her, she was reluctant to leave. "I know you''re nervous about me..." Ye Chenyu''s voice was low and evil. "So you lost your thinking power." Chen Chen hung his eyes, closed his mouth and didn''t speak. "Chen Yu, I have a fire in my heart..." Ye Chenyu said faintly, "I want to be with you, so it''s very hot." Chen Yu still did not respond. Ye Chenyu sighed secretly. In fact, he knew very well that Chen had no sense of security. In fact, he knows what she thinks. But such a sense of security, he can only slowly let her feel, he does not want to be with her because of gratitude or make do with it, but really want to be white headed together. "Is the rain really insane?" Chen Yu suddenly asked in a deep voice. As soon as ye Chenyu heard this, he immediately laughed and circled Chen Yu''s arm, which was also unconsciously tightened. No matter how powerful a woman is, she will always be the one who needs to be protected in love Ye Chenyu felt distressed in the depths of his eyes, but his face was full of evil charm, "rain..." He deliberately paused and hung Chen''s heart. Chen Yu looked up at Ye Chenyu and looked down at her... Waiting. "It''s all wet, don''t you think?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. Chen Yu was stunned at first, and then his face turned red. "Ye Chenyu, can''t you be serious?" "Well, isn''t it a serious thing for men to want to treat their women?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. "..." Chen Yu could hardly bite off his tongue at this moment. What are you asking?! It''s good to have a white head when it snows. Why do you have to ask the truth about the rain First she was angry, and now she was teased. She really had to ask herself and face it on her knees! Ye Chenyu appreciated Chen Yu''s changeable face and gradually narrowed his eyes Why haven''t you found out before? She''s so cute?! Eh, is it true that beauty is in the eyes of lovers? "Are you leaving yet..." Chen Zhen asked angrily. Ye Chenyu let go of Chen Yu, took her hand and continued to move forward... The corners of his mouth always smiled. For so many years, I lived with the shackles of illegitimate children on my back. I didn''t put it down until I was on duty. Shaochen said "brother". He thought he had nothing else to ask for in his life. But at this moment, he took Chen''s hand and left like this He suddenly hoped that the road would never end, and that was the perfection of his life. "If it''s a rainy day..." Ye Chenyu suddenly opened his mouth and looked at Chen Chen. "Chen Chen, I hope I''m your exclusive umbrella and accompany you... I can protect you from the wind and rain!" Chapter 1138 Chen Yu only felt that her heart suddenly stopped beating. Her steps mechanically followed Ye Chenyu''s steps, but the whole nerve was deeply shocked. Ye Chenyu has looked forward again "Some things don''t depend on saying..." Ye Chenyu said, "Chen, just feel it slowly." Chen Yu''s eyes were slightly red. She swallowed and suppressed her tumbling emotion. Her voice was soft and waxy and asked, "is this the real answer to the rain?" "HMM..." Ye Chenyu smiled and looked at Chen Yu. Because of his experience, Xu saw through many things and understood many things that others did not understand. He wants to be with Chen Yu, so he wants to give her good. He also wants to give her what other girls can enjoy. Protect her, accompany her Don''t let her life boring, let her life full of romance. Chen Yu is strong, but the stronger he is, the more he needs pain, isn''t he? Just like just... That ignorant look. Ye Chenyu''s smile deepened at the corners of his mouth, showing the evil charm under tenderness. "What are you laughing at?" Chen Yu is curious. Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows, "Guess!" "..." Chen Yu glanced, "I can''t guess." She studies criminal psychology, not love psychology Chen Yu suddenly thought that he should buy some psychology books about love when he went back, or Ye Chenyu would dig a hole for her, which showed that she was very stupid. Ye Chenyu stopped and gently lifted Chen Yu''s hair scattered by the wind behind his ears with his fingers. "I said, I feel very happy because I am with you... Do you think I am glib?" "Yes!" Chen Yu said impolitely. Ye Chenyu smiled, "well, that''s right." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Ye Chenyu pulled Chen Yu forward again This time, no one spoke, just like just going out, quietly holding hands, feeling the warmth of each other''s palms under the night of early autumn The street lights lengthen, shorten and lengthen the figures of the two people. Repeat like this, just like their footsteps. How many earthshaking and magnificent are there in life? Ye Chenyu doesn''t know He only knew that he didn''t want to worry about the ups and downs of Beichen and Jian Mo, nor did he want the embarrassment of Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue. He just wants to calmly hold a person''s hand for a lifetime. Unfortunately, he wants to be calm, but someone doesn''t give him peace! ¡­¡­ Chen Qishan took a bath and called Chen again. Good guy, turn it off! "Dead girl, hide if you can..." Chen Qishan gritted his teeth and said angrily. Angrily, he threw his mobile phone on the bedside table. But I don''t know whether it''s strength or against him. The mobile phone screen just hit the retro desk lamp holder and cracked! ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Qishan is so angry that he has nowhere to vent. "At such an old age, I''m as angry as a child..." Xie Zhenru came in with milk. "Chou Chou, I''m still working harder with my mobile phone!" Chen Qishan was a little agitated. At the thought of the conversation with Ye Chenyu, he had no hope for his son-in-law. Well, I''ve always been a sweet and clever daughter. Now because of him, I dare not answer his phone and turn it off! Looking at Chen Qishan''s appearance, Xie Zhenru smiled, "all right, go to bed after drinking milk. It''s not that Xiao Yu doesn''t come back all the time." Chen Qishan took it and didn''t drink it yet. Yu Guang saw the mobile phone with a broken screen. The more he thought about it, the more disgusted he was. After that, the daughter first had autism, then studied hard, followed by various training... Tasks. Now I''m looking forward to coming back, but I''m dying again. I think I can finally feel at ease this time That''s good. I found someone before I was in front of him! It is said that my daughter is the little lover of my last life, but now it''s better that my little lover will become someone else''s lover As soon as Chen Qishan thought of this, his whole heart was in a panic. "Alas..." Xie Zhenru sighed when she saw Chen Qishan''s appearance. In fact, she has no opinion on who her daughter looks for, as long as she is good to her daughter. However, a systematic, or special police It''s all dangerous work in the future, and I don''t know if I can calm down. On the night of early autumn, the gentle breeze caresses people''s thoughts. The happiness of children always seems to be the concern of parents Even if they know clearly, they should let go and let them learn to "grow"! ¡­¡­ the second day. The weather was fine the day before. After a night, it suddenly changed. Wang Qiang listened to Ye Chenyu''s words and his face was a little dignified. "Have you decided?" Ye Chenyu always looked like a fool. He took a cigarette from Wang Qiang''s desk and lit it. "Well, it''s decided." Ye Chenyu''s voice is casual and can''t hear too much emotion. Wang Qiang sighed heavily, "you have decided, and no one can change it." "Yes." Ye Chenyu answered and flicked the ash in the ashtray. "It''s not a whim or any emotion. It''s thoughtful..." Wang Qiang looked at Ye Chenyu with complex emotions in his eyes, which could not be calmed for a long time. "Alas..." Wang Qiang saw that ye Chenyu had no room for maneuver. Finally, he could only sigh, "well, I''ll tell you what you think." "OK." Ye Chenyu answered and put out the smoke behind the ashtray. "Then I''ll go first." "Chenyu..." Wang Qiang shouted at Ye Chenyu as he turned around. "Huh?" Ye Chenyu turned his head. "Are you willing?" Wang Qiang asked after all. In the whole police station, no one knows Ye Chenyu better than him. After all, he was the one who noticed Ye Chenyu when he was in the police academy, and he has been online for so many years. He knows what ye Chenyu needs, suits and wants! But now "Uncle Qiang," said Ye Chenyu with an evil smile, "you can only get if you have a house!" Then he blinked at Wang Qiang, turned and left The sky outside sank more and more. It was not like morning. Ye Chenyu sat in the car, his sight fell on the overcast sky, and his sight became deep Last night, he just took Chen''s hand and walked all the way, all the way Later, neither of them actually spoke, but walked quietly. At that time, he thought a lot, which made him feel that he had no time to waste his life. The ringing of the mobile phone interrupted Ye Chenyu''s thoughts. Ye Chenyu took it out. Seeing that it was Chen Yu, he smiled and picked it up. "Why did you leave for one night and miss me so soon?" "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth and said with some strange air, "yes, I miss you so much. Would you like to come and see me?" "Chen Ju, is this a false public interest?" Ye Chenyu said deliberately. Chen Yu spit and said, "the director asked me to come to you to talk about the next work..." "OK, I''ll be there in an hour!" Ye Chenyu answered. During working hours, the relationship between the two is superior and subordinate. Ye Chenyu has a good grasp of this. Besides, this will be discussed sooner or later. "Well, I''ll wait for you." Chen Yu spoke and hung up. The phone in the office rang before the mobile phone was put down Chen Chen picked up, "Hello, east district police station." "Xiao Yu, I''m Wang Qiang..." "Wang bureau?" Chen Yu was surprised, "what''s up?" "Just Chenyu walked from me..." Wang Qiang''s voice was dignified. "He''s going to leave the special police team. Do you know that?" Chapter 1139 After listening to Wang Qiang''s words, Chen Yu didn''t react for a long time. "Ah?" Some of Chen Yu''s brain got stuck and asked, "Wang Ju, what did you just say?" "Ye Chenyu wants to leave the criminal police team..." Wang Qiang''s voice is a little heavy. You can feel that he is obviously in a bad mood. Chen Yu was silent again. She lowered her eyes and tightened her mouth. Wang Qiang didn''t urge either, just waiting for her reaction. After a long time, Chen Chen asked, "did he go to you?" Yes, but I already understand. She didn''t know what her mood was, although she thought that whether ye Chenyu stayed or not, she thought it was reasonable and there was nothing wrong But when she heard that he was really going to leave, she couldn''t tell the taste in her heart. No wonder he was so strange last night. "Just left me," Wang Qiang sighed. "I know the east side will talk to him about this problem. Just tell you the prophet. It''s for public and private. You can discuss it with him." "Yes." Chen Ying Sheng. Wang Qiang sighed again. "In fact..." he paused without saying, "forget it, there''s a result later. Tell me." "OK." Chen hung up the phone and leaned back slowly in his chair. I looked down on the computer screen and suddenly remembered the post it notes posted on it that day. Open the drawer and take out A few simple strokes are funny, but they make people warm and helpless. Ye Chenyu is a rare talent in the police force. His experience is unparalleled. It was polished by undercover for so many years However, people are tired. After this detoxification, no one knows better than Chen Yu that ye Chenyu is really tired. He can succeed this time. What about next time?! Chen Yu looked at the post it note and gradually lost his mind He said he wanted to white his head with her and hold up an umbrella for her. As if... She understood what he meant. "Dong Dong!" Chen Yu was revived by the knock on the door. She put the post it note in the drawer and said, "come in!" After closing the drawer and lifting his eyes, the person who came in was not ye Chenyu, but Zhang Chao. "Captain," Zhang Chao stepped forward and put a case report in front of Chen, "the case handed over from the south district is the same as the case from the East District..." "Yes." Chen Ying said, "put it down first and let all the members of the criminal police team have a meeting in the big conference room in the afternoon." "OK." Zhang Chao answered and looked at Chen Yu and wondered, "is it uncomfortable?" "I''m fine, just a little tired..." Chen said casually. As soon as Zhang Chao heard it, a vague smile immediately overflowed from the corners of his mouth. When Chen Yu saw it, he quickly put it away, said a voice and went out. Don''t think about it. It must be Lu Xiaowei''s loudspeakers talking nonsense about what happened last night. But at the moment, Chen Yu was too lazy to explain anything. He just rubbed the center of his eyebrows. His mind was full of Ye Chenyu''s things. The knock came again. Chen Ying answered and saw Ye Chenyu push the door and come in "Uncomfortable?" Ye Chenyu tightened his eyebrows slightly when he saw Chen Yu put his forehead down with his hand. Chen Yu shook her head, "I''m fine, you sit..." as she said, she got up and made Ye Chenyu a cup of coffee and put it in front of him. Ye Chenyu looked, "tut Tut, this leader makes coffee himself. My treatment is good!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu, "I see?" "Have you decided?" Chen Yu didn''t answer the question. She could guess what ye Chenyu knew. It''s estimated that one knew about Wang Qiang and the other could guess when she looked like this. "If you don''t know, how do you want to talk to me?" Ye Chenyu took a sip of coffee. It has strong taste and endless aftertaste. It is a top-grade product. "I don''t know, actually." Chen Yu rubbed the cup. "As a direct leader, I naturally don''t want you to leave, but in my private heart, I don''t want you there..." Ye Chenyu''s evil smile deepened at the corners of his mouth, waiting for Chen to continue. "I want to know the real reason why you left..." Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu with sharp eyes. Ye Chenyu didn''t avoid her eyes, but said easily, "I''m tired." "For that reason?" Chen Yu frowned. Ye Chenyu smiled. "When a person is tired, his enthusiasm is naturally less. What else is the reason?" Chen Yu drooped his eyes and became silent. Ye Chenyu drank coffee, but his sight never left Chen Yu "What are you going to do next?" Chen asked. "Continue to open my detective agency..." Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrow. "..." Chen Shu frowned and looked at Ye Chenyu with complete surprise on his face. She only wanted Ye Chenyu to leave the criminal police force, but she didn''t expect that he was going to leave the police force. "Ye Chenyu, have you really thought it over?" Chen Yu gritted her teeth and asked. At this moment, both public and private, she was surprised and couldn''t help herself. Ye Chenyu shrugged easily, "thought it over." Chen Shuo closed his mouth and looked at Ye Chenyu quietly, as if he could not recover from the shock. Ye Chenyu suddenly laid his arms on his desk and said with a smile, "why don''t you want me?" Chen Yu didn''t speak. "Are you reluctant to part with Chen Ju or my sister?" Ye Chenyu looked evil and ruffian. Chen Yu still didn''t speak. "If it''s Chen Ju, well, we still have opportunities for cooperation in the future..." Ye Chenyu smiled. "If it''s sister Yu, I''m not going to be raised by you. Remember that I''ll be fine in the future. Give me more small cases to do." Hearing that he started running the train with his mouth full, Chen Yu''s heart was at sixes and sevens. She suddenly found that she didn''t know whether ye Chenyu''s decision was good or bad. "Chen, will you support me?" Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu and asked. His eyes became burning. His hands covered her hands and held them gently. Chen Chen''s vision of Shangye Chenyu, she saw his expectation from his eyes. Laugh. From the heart He always sees through others calmly. He knows what he wants and hopes the people around him understand what he wants. "If this is something you''ve considered carefully, I support you..." Chen zhe said to his lower lip, "no matter what your status and occupation, ye Chenyu, I want to be with you." "That''s good..." Ye Chenyu resumed his evil appearance. "Since you have raised me, you will be outside the Lord and inside the Lord." As soon as Chen Yu heard this, he laughed with a puff, and there was no depression at all. After leaving the east district police station, ye Chenyu drove to the Emperor For his leaving the police station, he felt it necessary to explain it to Gu Beichen in person. After all, he is indispensable to the public and private life for many years. Gu Beichen was not surprised to see ye Chenyu coming. "Uncle Qiang told you?" Ye Chenyu sat down. Gu Beichen shook his head. Ye Chenyu rubbed his temples. "Gu Beichen, what can''t be concealed from you?" "If you don''t pay attention, you can." Gu Beichen Mo Tong said deeply, "tell me your real reason..." Ye Chenyu slowly leaned back on the chair and was silent. Then he slowly said, "because it''s her, I''m willing to give up!" Chapter 1140 Gu Beichen is not surprised by such an answer. He is one who knows Ye Chenyu''s character. To some extent, they are confidants. Ye Chenyu was reluctant to take that job, or... With good preconditions, he could have left the police force long ago. Being injected and detoxified are not enough to get him out of his favorite job. But a Chen, yes. Why? ha-ha! Where do so many emotional things come from? Why? "Alas..." Ye Chenyu often breathed a sigh of relief. "Thinking about my job, one can''t give people a sense of security, and the other, I guess Chen''s parents don''t want to work as dangerous as their son-in-law and can''t give their daughter a sense of security..." "Well, if my daughter comes to you like this, I don''t agree." Gu Beichen said with a smile. "Speak as if you had a daughter." Ye Chenyu rolled his eyes. Gu Beichen smiled but didn''t speak. He didn''t turn the topic to him. "Does Chen Chen know what you think?" "Maybe I know, maybe I don''t know. I didn''t say it. I guess I have some ideas." Ye Chenyu took out his cigarette and just wanted to order, he was stopped by Gu Beichen''s eyes. "Isn''t Jane Mo absent?" "She went downstairs to talk about design with Shen Chu and will come up in a minute." Ye Chenyu curled his lips and put away his cigarette. "In fact, I''m not far from that job when I leave the police force and open a detective agency... It''s good to spend more time with her and help her at work." After a pause, he said with a smile, "people always have to make choices, so that my mother can be at ease... After worrying all her life and finding a daughter-in-law, she can''t worry from one person to two." "Yes." Gu Beichen agrees. Ye Chenyu leaned against the seat, with a casual posture and big prickly legs. "Besides, women are very emotional. In the future, I will work under her. You said that I was in danger. Did she let me go or didn''t she let me go?" "You think a lot." Gu Beichen smiled and shook his head. "That is!" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. "The main thing is, in case something happens to me, how do you let her live? The torture in her private heart, as well as self blame and regret... I don''t want to just pull her out of the magic barrier and push her back into hell." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Ye Chenyu deeply. He didn''t feel wrong about his foresight. A man, when willing to consider for a woman, will want to consider everything clearly After all, that''s the person he cares about. Only care, will be willing to pay and give up. "You''ve decided..." Gu Beichen has no opinion. "I''m afraid Shaochen will be happy after listening to it." "Have a drink together in the evening?" Ye Chenyu asked. "Well, good." Ye Chenyu was a little surprised, "tut Tut, what a quick promise?" "Mo''er is going to have a party with Xiangyu''s people tonight. It''s at the emperor''s Club..." "..." Ye Chenyu immediately rolled his eyes, "no wonder he promised so readily." He looked at Gu Beichen''s smile, shrugged and said, "it seems that you can only have a drink at the emperor''s club tonight." "When Chen Yu is pregnant, you will understand my mood." Gu Beichen said with a smile. Ye Chenyu didn''t feel Gu Beichen''s mood at the moment, but on that day, Chen Yu was pregnant. He could hardly wait to give birth to several separate people and watch 24 hours. No way, who makes Chen''s work special?! ¡­¡­ Mo palace. Qingqing measured the water temperature. Seeing that it was already the right temperature, she handed the medicine to star, "take the medicine." Star glanced at her and looked away from her face. Qingqing was stunned. Some didn''t understand why the little guy suddenly lost his temper. "The doctor said you have to take medicine for two days to consolidate." Qingqing smiled and said, "when you''re finished, Qingqing will accompany you to dry sunflower seeds, OK?" Star toots his mouth, his small face is full of reluctance, a pair of eyes, but he always inadvertently looks in the direction of the door Qingqing was a little discouraged. "Then tell me, how can you take medicine?" Star twinkled with bright eyes, hummed in his nose and didn''t speak. In short, it''s an attitude that I don''t take medicine. Qingqing, with a bitter face, was wondering how to make the little guy take medicine. She heard footsteps behind her Almost at the same time, star suddenly looked at where the sound came from When he saw it was Shi Shaoqin, the little guy''s eyes "Shua" and became bright. "Qin Shao!" "Why not take medicine?" Shi Shaoqin walked up to star and asked softly. Star tooted his mouth and his arms propped up Shi Shaoqin took him into his arms without thinking, and then sat down in a chair. "Don''t you want to take medicine?" "Want a stone to feed!" Star said softly. Hearing this, Qing Qing glanced discontentedly, "Alas, it''s better to accompany Qin Shao every day..." Star looked at Xiang Qingqing. The little guy''s eyes were obviously cunning, but he didn''t answer anything. He just put his arm around Shi Shaoqin and said, "sun sunflower seeds... Stone with me!" "OK..." Shi Shaoqin replied with a smile, and then took the medicine handed over by Qing Qing. "Take the medicine first, and then go to the sun together, huh?" "Yes!" Star answered and skillfully took the medicine. Qingqing slightly deflated her mouth and murmured in her heart: why can''t she? Qin Shao can do it. In addition, she proposed to sun sunflower seeds. Why didn''t star agree to take medicine... Hum, it''s good for the little guy at the moment to make terms with Qin Shao. After Shi Shaoqin fed star the medicine, he picked him up and went out Kani stood at the door and watched Shi Shaoqin stop several times. But in the end, Shi Shaoqin choked back because he listened carefully to star talking to him. "What''s the matter?" Qingqing felt that Carney looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back and looked constipated. She couldn''t help asking. Carney sighed. "Qin Shao just came to see if star had taken the medicine. There was a quota meeting in ten minutes..." he said and looked at Shi Shaoqin again. "You can see that you can''t be idle for an hour or two to sun sunflower seeds with star!" Qingqing shrugged. "There''s no way. The sky is big and the earth is big. It''s not as happy as star." Kani had a headache. His eyes fell on Shi Shaoqin''s back and sighed helplessly. Star is well protected now, but if someone wants to catch Qin Shao, just control star This idea made Carney a little worried. Shi Shaoqin, who has no weakness, now knows that he has a fatal weakness. However, he doesn''t care at all. His love for star is getting more and more irritating day by day. Star fiddled with sunflower seeds with his small hands. Under the refraction of the sun, the blue agate on his wrist became particularly gorgeous. "Stone..." star looked at Shi Shaoqin and saw him look over. He grinned and picked up a handful of sunflower seeds. "Send it, aunt!" Then he shook his wrist tied with blue agate. Shi Shaoqin looked at the blue agate and replied, "OK!" Star smiled more happily and then said the terms, "star, send it yourself!" Chapter 1141 Shi Shaoqin looked at star, his long eyes narrowed slightly, "do you want to give it to your aunt?" "Yes!" Star nodded heavily, with expectation in his bright eyes. Shi Shaoqin wanted to refuse, but when he saw star''s shining eyes, he couldn''t bear it Even if, let him see Jane Mo, how much planning and arrangement he has to go through, he can''t bear to refuse. "OK..." Shi Shaoqin answered softly, with a soft smile at the corners of his mouth. Star immediately clapped his hands happily, got up, put his arms around Shi Shaoqin''s neck and said softly, "the stone is the best, the best!" Shi Shaoqin''s heart suddenly turned into a pool of water, as if it was worth even more energy to arrange a meeting next. As long as star is happy The wind is blowing gently, and the sunshine in early autumn is still very hot for Mo palace. Star gets what he wants, swings his small body, keeps kneeling on the ground, fiddling with sunflower seeds, and grins all the time Children''s subconscious is intuitive. Who you like, you will have a good dependence on who you like Even once, he seemed to have a natural attachment to Jane Morse. The sun fell on star''s white face, plated with a layer of golden light, and fell in Shi Shaoqin''s eyes, just like the sun close to him. Shi Shaoqin''s mouth gradually overflowed with a shallow smile, and his eyes looked at star, overflowing with greedy eyes. "Stone, give aunt a lot..." Star stood up excitedly and turned to look at Shi Shaoqin. Suddenly The little guy''s body shook. I didn''t know whether it was because it was too fierce in the sun or something. I just felt that Venus appeared in front of me. Then, Shi Shaoqin''s figure was dizzy and dyed into several. With the sound of "Oh", star''s small face became bitter in an instant. Shi Shaoqin didn''t notice anything different. His eyes turned over, and his small body was already soft and fell down ¡°Star£¡¡± Shi Shaoqin''s frightened voice came when star fell down. Almost instantly, Shi Shaoqin''s people had arrived at star and hurriedly picked him up gently, "star... Star?" Star''s body seemed soft. Under the gentle shaking of Shi Shaoqin, there was no support at all. Even the sunflower seeds tightly held in my little hand slowly fall Shi Shaoqin''s whole face changed. Without much thought, he picked up star and hurried to the direction of the ancient castle "Find a doctor and let Xi Cheng come!" Seeing that the situation was wrong, Shi Shaoqin hurried to Qingqing. Qingqing was stunned at first. Then she said "Oh" and hurried to call the doctor and Xi Cheng. The originally warm wind seemed to become cold. Even the scorching sun was covered by clouds that didn''t know when The Mo palace was suddenly shrouded in a layer of dignity under repression. Everyone became self dangerous because of star''s sudden fainting. At the same time, they were full of worry. Not only because of the naive and lovely child, but also because of myself. Shi Shaoqin was shrouded in a haze. At the last moment, he looked at how comfortable the smile on star''s face was. At this moment, he was so depressed. "Star will be all right..." Shi Jue Chi comforted, "it may be just because after a fever, he was in the sun for too long and suddenly got up with insufficient blood supply..." Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, and his narrow eyes narrowed slightly. At that moment, it''s full of bloodthirsty. Shi juechi sighed and said nothing more. As long as the result doesn''t come out, I''m afraid Shaoqin won''t listen to anyone. Time, a little bit of the past. As he waited, Shi Shaoqin''s face became more and more heavy, and the whole person couldn''t calm down. The position of his heart seemed to be pressed by something, which made him irritable and out of breath. Qingqing''s eyes are red. She can be said to have the most contact with star except Shi Shaoqin. Seeing star''s sudden appearance, she felt worried, guilty and remorseful. It''s all her. She didn''t take good care of star and didn''t find anything wrong In fact, star should be uncomfortable today. But the little guy is strong. At that time, she was uncomfortable and didn''t want to take medicine. She should feel it. She just thought that star just wanted to be admired and ignored something. With the passage of time, the whole ink palace was shrouded in dignity From day to evening, the afterglow gradually fell on the other side of the sea level. Everyone was exhausted because of waiting. Just as it was getting dark, the door of the examination room finally opened Xi Cheng looked at Shi Shaoqin with a dignified face. He didn''t speak, and everyone looked at him with a bad feeling in their hearts. Shi Shaoqin didn''t immediately ask about star''s situation since he was born... In Mo palace, only he and Xi Cheng know best. "Qin Shao..." Xi Cheng said. Shi Shaoqin came forward and entered the examination room without saying anything. No one followed, including Shi juechi. Seeing the appearance of Xi Cheng, everyone knew that the situation of star would only be told to Shi Shaoqin. The sound of closing the door came from the "click", blocking the inside and outside. "Say!" Shi Shaoqin''s breath is slightly heavy. Xi Cheng took a deep breath, "before star had a fever, it was really just a fever... Only when the fever caused silence from the mother, it would cause insufficient blood supply and produce dizziness, palpitations and other reactions..." Shi Shaoqin listened quietly. The beautiful handsome face became more and more dignified with Xi Cheng''s words. Even at this moment, all his nerves were filled with regret. At the beginning, I took silence for Jian Mo to restrain Beichen from working for him. But now it has caused star''s physical problems "Consequences." Shi Shaoqin clenched his teeth and asked. At the same time, he suddenly opened his eyes, which overflowed with the scarlet under the ruthlessness. Xi Cheng suddenly "clattered" in his heart. Startled by the cold overflowing from Shi Shaoqin, he swallowed it involuntarily. "I studied silence with morsi at the beginning. He always likes soft penetration in pharmacology. Even silenceds is probably useless for star now..." Xi Cheng''s voice is also more and more dignified. "I don''t want to hear this!" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was a little deeper. "Now you just need to tell me what star will do!" In every word, Shi Shaoqin almost squeezed his teeth with his remaining strength. How will silence react? He knows very well "Didn''t you say that progesterone hormone would offset the drug of silence? Why did star have a residue on his body?" Shi Shaoqin''s eyes became scarlet. At the moment, he is like the sunshine just about to catch, and suddenly wants to gradually stay away from him Even, a pair of hands pushed him hard and tried to push him into the dark. He hesitated and even resisted. Although there is no complete consequence response, he seems to have fallen into the cold abyss Xi Cheng also has a dignified face. He knew what Shi Shaoqin was worried about at the moment "Will star forget the people and things before..." Xi Cheng''s voice was astringent. "I can''t guarantee it now!" Chapter 1142 Xi Cheng''s words fell, and Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak for a long time. How important star is to Shi Shaoqin, the people in Mo palace now know If star wakes up and forgets Qin Shao, Xi Cheng really doesn''t know what the consequences will be. Because there was no sound, the air became dignified. Just when Xi Cheng was nervous because of worry, Shi Shaoqin gently opened his lips and said slowly, "I only wish him well..." Five words, clearly very calm, but with inexplicable sadness. Shi Shaoqin didn''t say anything more, but went into the inner room of the examination room, stood by the hospital bed, looked like a sleeping star, and gradually lost his mind. Xi Cheng only felt his nose sour. When Qin Shao said, "I only wish him well," he didn''t know what kind of mood he was in. But at that moment, his heart seemed to be stuffed with lemon, and his eyes were wet with acid. Qin Shao''s attachment and doting on star are too deep. Even if star forgets him, he only hopes that star can be safe. That''s good! But he can''t imagine at the moment. If star really forgets qinshao, how will qinshao bite his sadness in a place where there is no one?! It is said that there is a cause before there is a result. At the beginning, because of progesterone hormone, Jane Mo was not hurt by silence. Even, star was born prematurely unexpectedly, and her life was on the line. It was also because silence was able to survive. But now, because of silence, it is possible to fall into a situation where it is impossible to predict whether it is good or bad Xi Cheng walked into the inner room with some dignified steps, looked at him in silence, just a pair of eyes, and quietly looked at Shi Shaoqin of star. "Qin Shao," Xi Cheng gritted his teeth, "I will think of a way to solve the problems left by silence on star." It''s a guarantee, but I don''t want this man who has been gentle for years to fall into boundless solitude again. "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered softly, unable to hear his emotions. From beginning to end, he didn''t look away from star "Xi Cheng, what''s star''s problem now?" Shi Shaoqin asked. "The body will be a little weak..." Xi Cheng didn''t hide, "it may produce amnesia, or intermittent amnesia. At the same time, it will be easier to get tired." "Alas..." Shi Shaoqin sighed softly, with love in his eyes. "Star is most restless. He will not be used to such fatigue." Full of spoiled words, can not hide the helplessness under sadness. Shi Shaoqin slowly raised his hand and gently stroked star''s small face with his finger belly. Sadness gradually filled the fundus of his eyes ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. At the dawn of the lantern, people who have been busy all day either want to get home in a hurry or rush to the party with passion. Xiao Jing looked coldly at Zhao Qianyu who followed him on the bus, "you don''t need to follow me after work." "By the way, take it with you." Zhao Qianyu didn''t see Xiao Jing''s resistance at all, so he pulled his seat belt and fastened it. "When did you stop by?" Xiao Jing sneered. Zhao Qianyu innocently fanned his eyes, "aren''t you going to the emperor''s club?" Xiao Jing frowned slightly and didn''t answer. Zhao Qianyu grinned, "I''m going too..." "..." Xiao Jing had a headache. Seriously, if it weren''t for this, he would cultivate himself and stop beating women. He really wanted to kick the woman out of the car. "Do you want to tell me next," Xiao jingpi said with a smile. "You even have the same box in the emperor club with me?" "Well, how do you know?" Zhao Qianyu widened his eyes and did not retain his worship of Xiao Jing, "Why are you so powerful?!" "..." Xiao Jing was speechless again. At work, Zhao Qianyu is definitely a capable and rigorous person. But once out of work, she will definitely subvert your understanding of her Ignorance and foolishness are her exclusive pronouns! "Get off!" Xiao Jing took back his sight and looked ahead. There was no room for maneuver in his tone. "No!" Zhao Qianyu also turned his face. Xiao Jing smiled coldly at the corner of his mouth, "then you can wait for tomorrow''s resignation letter." ¡°¡­¡­¡± As soon as Zhao Qianyu listened, the corners of his mouth smoked and secretly scolded "shit"! "You are cruel!" Zhao Qianyu gritted his teeth, angrily loosened his seat belt, opened the door and got out of the car. Looking at the car ''swish'', he ran away from himself. Zhao Qianyu''s teeth bite straight. "What else can you do except use this trick against me?" Zhao Qianyu looked at the back of the car and said angrily, "Xiao Jing, you can force me to coax. That''s the right I give you... When one day, I don''t like you, do you really think I have to be by your side?" With that, Zhao Qianyu''s nose was sour and his eyes suddenly turned red. Leaning over his face, Zhao Qianyu laughed at himself, took a breath hard, and forced the fog from the bottom of his eyes back. She took a deep breath and looked at the parking lot where there was no Xiaojing car for a long time. She angrily returned to the elevator "If you don''t follow, what''s the big deal..." Zhao Qianyu inhaled. "I don''t believe in evil. I can''t catch up with a man!" ¡­¡­ Chen Yu parked his car in the parking space, turned his head and looked at the direction of the villa. I loosened my seat belt and was about to get out of the car when my mobile phone rang. Chen Chen took out the phone and saw that it was Ye Chenyu who called and closed the door that had just opened "Home?" Ye Chenyu asked. "Yes." Chen Yu glanced at the direction of the villa again. Ye Chenyu leaned against the corridor pillar of the emperor''s club and smoked. "If you can''t make it, call me." "What are you doing?" Chen Yu frowned slightly. "Man, what can''t be done with a bottle of wine?" Ye Chenyu said with an evil smile, "one bottle of wine can''t be done, just two... I''ll put your father down later and become friends. What else can''t be done?" "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corner of his mouth, "Ye Chenyu, can''t you be serious?" "I''m very serious..." Ye Chenyu continued with a smile. "In fact, you can consider my suggestion." Chen Yu closed his eyes. "Considering your suggestion is looking for a dead end." Chen Chen knows too well what his father''s character is. She didn''t hear the phone ring last night when everyone had a noisy dinner. Then it turned off automatically In the evening, ye Chenyu shouted to go to the emperor club together, but before getting off work, he received a call from his mother A phone call conveys two points. First, my father was very angry last night because he couldn''t get through. Second, make sure she comes back at night She''s not stupid. Asked mom why her father called her all the time last night, mom said that Lu Bureau ate at home last night, and she knew... Lu bureau must have said that her boyfriend was Ye Chenyu. Chen Yu has a headache. She originally planned to go slowly. Now, the plan is not as fast as change. "Really don''t need me to go?" Ye Chenyu asked. "I''ll go first. I''m not sure. Just bring two bottles of wine and get Lao Chen drunk!" Chen Yu said dully. "That''s a joke..." Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. "If you''re really uncertain, I naturally have a way." As soon as Chen Yu heard this, he suddenly came to the spirit, "what way?" Chapter 1143 "How simple..." Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. "Cook cooked rice with raw rice and make a little man first. Can your old Chen let her daughter knock it out?" "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth. But ye Chenyu continued: "naturally, it won''t be right... If you don''t kill it, you can''t have a child without a father!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± "Children''s children are definitely the most favorable weapon!" Ye Chenyu said, his eyes have been deep and bottomless. Although the corners of his mouth were filled with an evil smile, inexplicably, he suddenly dreamed of Chen Yu''s big stomach. He must have been brainwashed by Gu Beichen today "Ye Chenyu, I found..." Chen Chen gritted his teeth. "Let you be serious. It''s just a dream!" "Well, I just said that, you didn''t expect anything?" Ye Chenyu''s voice suddenly became a little hoarse and magnetic, "Chen Yu, do you think we want a daughter or a son?" "It''s like you can have whatever you want?!" Chen Yu was speechless. Ye Chenyu is confident, "it''s not the woman has the final say to give birth to a son or a daughter. It''s the man''s ability. Why, you don''t believe I have this ability?" Men have two chromosomes, which determine the importance of having boys and girls. Of course Chen knows this. But she didn''t answer. She wanted to see what ye Chenyu would say next "Let me tell you, Chen Yu." Don''t you believe me, Chen Yuyi "..." Chen Yu was stunned at first, and then he burst out laughing. "I don''t believe it yet..." "OK, why don''t we bet!" Ye Chenyu is coming. Chen Yu raised his eyebrows. "Well, if anyone loses, wash the other party''s feet for a year." "Shit, so cruel?!" Ye Chenyu grinned. "You were full of confidence just now. How about gambling?" "Bet, bet, I''m afraid of you!" Chen Yu immediately laughed and said, "Ye Chenyu, don''t break your promise. I just recorded it... It will become a testimony in court at that time." "..." Ye Chenyu twitched at the corners of his mouth, "women are just careful." "No, no, no, it has nothing to do with being careful. It''s completely professional!" Chen Yu''s face was full of joy and smile under love. In the dark, there was light. Under the provocation of Ye Chenyu, Chen Yu in the car gradually relaxed his originally nervous mood Ye Chenyu heard that Chen Yu''s mood at the moment was obviously easier than when he just answered the phone. The smile on the corners of his mouth deepened. Chen Chen is relaxed here, but he is angry that Lao Chen, who is waiting for his daughter in the house, is getting darker and darker. "You see, you see..." Chen Qishan was so angry that he stared. "She''s going to stay in the car all the time? Ah?" "Xiao Yu is probably talking on the phone?" Xie Zhenru said casually. Chen Qishan''s face became darker and darker. He looked at the car in the parking lot not far away and snorted. "You''ve met your daughter, just like a child..." Xie Zhenru looked at Chen Qishan with a smile. "There are many emergencies in Xiaoyu''s work. You''re still angry when you answer the phone!" "Hum!" Chen Qishan said coldly, "work? I think it''s what she and ye Chenyu said..." "Yo, do you know?" Xie Zhenru held back her smile. "Look, look at the way she smiles in the car..." Chen Qishan gritted his teeth. "Tell me, when have you ever seen Xiaoyu like this?" "Yo, too!" Xie Zhenru looked at her face and smiled. It was obvious that she couldn''t hold it. This light problem, even if you see Xiaoyu''s body moving, can you still see her smile? Lao Chen''s eyes are not old flowers at all, but with binoculars! Of course, Xie Zhenru didn''t say this to Chen Qishan. "If you get out of the car on purpose, you''ll be happy," said Ru Chenyu. "If you get out of the car on purpose, you''ll have to go again!" "She dares!" Chen Qishan immediately fried the wool. Xie Zhenru completely laughed. She looked at Chen Qishan''s dark face and didn''t annoy him any more. She just controlled the wheelchair and said, "I''ll let you bring out the dishes... You, just stare at your daughter here." "..." Chen Qishan jerked at the corners of his mouth and snorted again. He didn''t say anything, but looked at Chen''s car again. At the right time, Chen opened the door and came down. Just when she subconsciously looked at the villa, Chen Qishan hurried to one side, and then looked around. When she saw that Xie Zhenru didn''t look at him, she deliberately coughed. After covering up her embarrassment, she went to the table and sat down first. Xie Zhenru looked back before entering the kitchen and saw Chen Qishan sitting there with his body in his hand. She felt more and more funny. "Dad!" When Chen entered the room, he first looked at the table and shouted. Then he changed his shoes, put his bag and washed his hands. Chen Qishan got angry in his nose when Chen Yu came over. Chen Yu grinned secretly. Lao Chen told her that he was in a bad mood?! Thinking, Chen Yu winked at Xie Zhenru who came out of the kitchen, and suddenly understood in his heart. What does Chen Yu study? Psychology! Well, although it''s Criminal Psychology But Chen Qishan''s temperament is very clear as a daughter. Therefore, she decided to pretend that she didn''t see Chen Qishan "angry", as if nothing had happened, eating and chatting at the same time. However, the topic is not about the "object". Chen Qishan is definitely a character in the mall. But in front of his daughter, that is a father who cares about his daughter After a meal, Chen seemed to have nothing strange to talk about, but he was about to suffocate his internal injury. "Dad, I won''t stay at home later," Chen said, wiping his mouth. "There will be a meeting tomorrow morning. It''s more convenient for me to go back to my apartment." "Can''t you squat at home now?" Chen Qishan finally found the fire from his hair. Of course, it was Chen Yu''s intention She is really afraid to let Lao Chen hold back again. The matter between her and ye Chenyu is even more difficult! "Dad, what''s the matter?" Chen Yu looked innocent. "I... didn''t do the same before?" "Chen Yu, just tell me, do you still take this family as your home and my father as your father?" Chen Qishan gritted his teeth and asked. Chen Yu carried forward the innocent emotion, "Dad, you say this..." she said to the corner of her mouth, "I know, I''m too busy with my work and I don''t spend much time with you, so you''re angry with me..." As he spoke, Chen Yu lowered his eyes. Ye Chenyu just made a move: we must show weakness! Sure enough Chen Qishan couldn''t bear to see his daughter sad. "I''m not because of your work." Chen Qishan said angrily, "Chen Chen, I won''t beat around the bush with you... I came back to you today to talk about your boyfriend!" Chapter 1144 Chen Yu has already had psychological preparation. In addition, he started talking only to let his father speak. But what should be installed still needs to be installed. "What happened to my boyfriend?" Chen Yu looked at Chen Qishan with a confused face. "Why doesn''t he care? I don''t care!" Chen Qishan looked serious. "I''ll put my position here today, Chen Yu... You can find anyone, but that boy, I don''t agree!" If you are firm, there is no room for maneuver. Chen Yu knew Lao Chen very well and naturally heard that he was not joking. "Why?" Chen Yu''s words about how to deal with Lao Chen were suddenly forgotten. Seeing Chen Qishan''s determination, she suddenly became angry. "Nothing why!" Chen Qishan snorted. "I admit that I didn''t take the initiative to tell you that I was wrong about the nature of his work..." Chen Yu thought Lu Bureau said Ye Chenyu. His father didn''t like that they were all engaged in dangerous work. "But he resigned this morning!" "Ah..." Chen Qishan sneered. "Don''t say I don''t agree with his work first. Now I resign, I don''t agree more." "Chen Xuan frowned. "How can a big man feed you without a job?" Chen Qishan sneered, "why, he knows you are my Chen Qishan''s daughter, so he''s waiting for you to raise it!" Hearing what Chen Qishan said about ye Chenyu, Chen Yu immediately turned cold. Although Ye Chenyu said to find a rich woman to raise him every day, she knew very well that he was a man of mouth Kung Fu. "He''s not!" Chen Yu looked closely at Chen Qishan, "Dad, if you don''t accept or even look down on him because of the problem of the portal, I can''t agree... Even, I don''t think it''s necessary to talk about it." Chen Teng stood up and wanted to leave. "Stop!" Chen Qishan is also on fire. Of course, he is not for the problems between portals, but he doesn''t like a person. Naturally, it''s all a problem. Chen Yu''s face was not good, and his hands were clenched, obviously holding back. Xie Zhenru didn''t think of it either. When she started talking, it was full of gunpowder. "Xiaoyu..." Xie Zhenru shouted, and then looked at Chen Qishan, who was also angry, "can''t you say it well..." "Hum!" Chen Qishan snorted, looking at his daughter''s stiff back, his heart was very sour. "I want to talk well, but you see, does she want to talk well with me?" If it wasn''t for the wrong atmosphere, Xie Zhenru wanted to laugh. I don''t know the sour taste in Chen Qishan''s words. I thought his lover had moved and left! Well, although it''s really a little lover, it''s just a little lover in my previous life. Chen Yu took a deep breath, turned around, and said with his beautiful apricot eyes: "Dad, ye Chenyu is the only man I''m so big and excited. I want to be with him." "No!" Chen Qishan was more angry when he saw that Chen Yu was a little soft. Chen Chen gritted her teeth. "You''d better agree, but don''t agree to pull down..." she was also stubborn. "I want to live with him all my life, not with you all my life!" "Pa!" Chen Qishan slapped his palm heavily on the table, shaking the tableware next to his palm. It can be imagined how much strength he used Xie Zhenru immediately looked dignified. Chen Chen raised his chin slightly, with a posture of never giving in. Chen Qishan stood up, angrily pointed to Chen Yu and said, "I don''t agree, just don''t agree..." he snorted coldly, "Chen Yu, I''ll tell you, I just don''t see that he doesn''t have the ability to give you a day!" "Then I''ll give him a good day." Chen Yu said calmly, with some complex emotions in his eyes. Looking at Chen Qishan who was about to have a heart attack, he endured, "I think we should calm down with each other..." With that, she didn''t stop this time and turned and left directly. "It''s turned over, it''s turned over!" Chen Qishan''s chest rose and fell, "you see, you see, your good daughter..." "I was born," said Xie Zhenru, rolling her eyes. "You spoil it!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Qishan choked and opened his mouth for a long time. He just didn''t know what to refute. Xie Zhenru poured him a glass of water. "Tell me about you. It''s not because of the boy''s work. You have to pull this." "Why am I not because of this?" Chen Qishan blew his hair as soon as he heard it. "Although my daughter is a civil servant, she can eat and drive. Which one can they afford with their little salary?" The more sad I think of Chen Qishan What did your daughter just say? Said she had that boy?! Why did he give birth to such a daughter who turned her elbow out?! Although, it is said that girls are extroverted Chen Qishan was even more angry at the thought of here. Originally, he didn''t like Ye Chenyu, but now he seduced his daughter against him, which made him even more unhappy. However, ye Chenyu, who was drinking a little wine at the moment, didn''t feel the "crisis" at all. He just chatted with Gu Beichen and looked at Xiao Jing funny. "What happened to your second scene?" Ye Chenyu asked with a smile, "constipation on his face." Gu Beichen glanced indifferently and said indifferently, "it''s estimated that I disliked him and called his little secretary to come together." "What''s his business?" Ye Chenyu''s heart is like a mirror, but he deliberately said, "I want to thank him for calling Qianyu over." At the beginning, if she hadn''t just heard that Li Ju met with iron fist, I''m afraid there would be twists and turns to disintegrate the wind puppet group. "Well, that''s why Xiao Jing was constipated." Gu Beichen is completely a gesture of "building happiness on the hard work of his brothers". The two talked recklessly. They didn''t care whether Xiao Jing was more and more forced or whether Zhao Qianyu was proud, as if they didn''t exist at all "Chen Shao, can you worry about my mood?" Xiao Jing said, gritting his teeth unbearably. "Worry," Gu Beichen said indifferently, "so he just chatted with Chenyu and didn''t interfere with your drinking sultry wine." "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth and endured for a long time. Finally, he clenched his teeth and squeezed out a word, "shit!" "Xiao Jing, it''s wrong for you to talk to Chen Shao like this." Zhao Qianyu said immediately. "Get out!" Xiao Jing was upset to hear Zhao Qianyu''s voice. At that time, Zhao Qianyu said he was on the way, and he drove her down But who knows, it''s really on the way! The face was slapped ''Pa Pa'' "No, why don''t you roll first and I''ll learn!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Looking at the two people starting to stick again, ye Chenyu leaned slightly towards Gu Beichen and said in a voice of only two people: "there are not many people who can provoke Xiao Jing to this son, are they?" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered faintly. Ye Chenyu was a little funny. "He let it go subconsciously. He didn''t know it?" Gu Beichen glanced at Ye Chenyu. "Just like you, you don''t know what you want!" "I''m flattered..." Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows, "so I can make a quick decision. You worked hard in the cold kiln for four and a half years!" "..." Gu Beichen was speechless immediately. At the right time, ye Chenyu''s mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. He took it out, saw it was Chen Yu, and picked it up However, when hearing the sound inside, ye Chenyu''s original smiling face suddenly stopped. "Where are you?" As ye Chenyu asked, the man stood up and went out. Gu Beichen frowned slightly. But ye Chenyu didn''t say anything. He opened the door of the box... And hurried out. Chapter 1145 With a Ding, the elevator arrived. At the moment when the elevator door opened, ye Chenyu had already raised his feet and wanted to go inside In due time, Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao walked out of the elevator together. Ye Chenyu almost didn''t run into them because he was worried. "What are you doing?" Mo Shaochen saw that ye Chenyu''s face was a little dignified and frowned slightly. Chu Zixiao also frowned lightly, "we just came here, you go?" "Something, you drink first..." Ye Chenyu said, pressing down the number. Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao looked at each other, but didn''t ask specifically, so they withdrew from the elevator. Watching the elevator door close, they looked at each other and turned to the box Xiao Jing and Zhao Qianyu haven''t finished their quarrel yet. Gu Beichen sends a text message with his mobile phone. Seeing the spring heart rippling on his face, he knows it''s for Jian mo. "Both of them are in the club and belong to the old husband and wife. Do you think so?" Mo Tsu Tchen make complaints about it. Gu Beichen glanced at him lightly. "It''s called sentiment..." he took his mobile phone, "Xiao Yue went to find Mo''er?" "Yes!" Mo Shaochen answered, "it''s better to find them at night than to play with some of our big men..." "What did Chenyu do in a hurry?" Chu Zixiao sat down and was curious. Gu Beichen pondered, "it''s estimated that Chen Yu''s family didn''t handle it. If he cares, he''s in chaos. He thinks something''s wrong with Chen Yu." exactly! Ye Chenyu choked when he heard Chen''s voice on the phone. He simply forgot to ask her about her. After asking where Chen was, he hurried over When ye Chenyu saw Chen Yu sitting on the open-air barbecue stand with several bottles of beer and freshly roasted barbecue on the table, he suddenly couldn''t laugh or cry. Sit down beside Chen Yu and look at the bad environment around him. It''s noisy and civilian. Because Chen is very beautiful, there are obscene eyes from time to time. Even some men look at her and talk about something. Ye Chenyu frowned slightly, and his eyes crossed those who looked at Chen, obviously with a warning. "Call me here just to show me how charming you are?" Ye Chenyu took back his sight. Would you like to roast a bottle of Chenyu''s beef or something in front of me Ye Chenyu glanced at the steaming barbecue. "Didn''t you eat at home?" "Yes." Chen Yu''s voice could not hear his emotions. "I thought you went back and carried it directly with your old Chen. You didn''t eat any food!" Ye Chenyu said evil ruffian, took a bunch of meat and began to eat. Chen Shuo looked down at the corners of his mouth, and there was an unspeakable emotion in his eyes. Ye Chenyu didn''t mention it. When Chen Yu called him at that time, there was an obvious sob in his voice. Chen Yu is strong. It''s one thing to hear that she''s in a bad mood. It''s another thing to expose her strength to her face. "Ye Chenyu..." "Yes!" Ye Chenyu gently responded, his voice was different from the evil spirit of the past, obviously soft. Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu, but he didn''t speak. Ye Chenyu didn''t force her either. Chen Yu sighed secretly, took back his sight, took the meat kebab and began to eat. After eating several strings in a row and pouring a few mouthfuls of beer, Chen looked at Ye Chenyu. He looked like he was wronged and asked for comfort, but he pretended to be strong and gave an umbrella. "If the two of us want to be together, we will face many problems..." Chen''s voice has an unconscious worry, "even it may hurt your bottom line. Do you think we can be together in the end?" When ye Chenyu heard this, his heart suddenly tightened, and his heartache spread out in the fundus of his eyes. He looked at Chen Yu. Because she was waiting for the answer, her strong and confident vision became uncertain. "We will be together." Ye Chenyu gave a clear answer, "as long as we want to be together... Any problem is not a problem for me." "But..." "No, but!" Ye Chenyu smiled. "A man can bend and stretch..." he raised his eyebrows at Chen Chen''s evil charm. "Besides, I''ve never had a bottom line. How can I hurt my bottom line?!" "Not......" Chen Shuo said, "I......" Ye Chenyu sighed, "Chen, do you have no confidence in me or in yourself?" In a word, Chen Yu was stunned. Also silent In fact, ye Chenyu understands Chen Yu''s mood at the moment. She was afraid that her father would embarrass him and damage his self-esteem. She also felt insecure about the relationship they had just established and was afraid of losing, so she was nervous and worried. But no matter how much he said at the moment, he was only comforting to the surface. Only face the problem with her and tell her with practical actions that he really wants to live with her all his life In the name of love! Chen Yu drooped his eyes and felt a little uncomfortable in his stomach. Ye Chenyu turned the beer glass and slowly said, "you asked me here to tell me that you can live the most ordinary life with me..." He raised his eyes and looked at Chen Yu. When it was time, Chen also raised his eyes and looked at him "No luxury cars, no luxury goods, no need for Western restaurants..." Ye Chenyu''s eyes were burning. "As long as there is me, right Chen zhe the corners of his mouth. "I don''t doubt it." Ye Chenyu''s eyes deepened, "one in the field for a long time Chen Yu''s nose suddenly sour. Training people, how can they not adapt to these? Besides, you are not a material person now... " He knows her, he knows her No need for her to say anything! "Well," said Ye Chenyu, looking at Chen''s eyes more and more deeply, "if you can compromise for me, why do you think I can''t work hard for you?" Chen Yu''s heart was heavy and instinctively retorted, "I didn''t mean that..." But she regretted it when she said it. Ye Chenyu has never studied psychology, but he has a pair of eyes that can see through people, which makes Chen Chen have nothing to hide. In love, whoever loves more will worry about gain and loss Isn''t that her?! Ye Chenyu sighed and leaned over slightly. Just when Chen didn''t respond, he rubbed her head with his big palm, just like petting a pet dog Well, full of doting. "Little girl, I told you at that time. Let me take two bottles of wine directly and put down your old Chen." Ye Chenyu resumed his evil spirit, "you don''t believe it." Chen Chen''s mood jumped a little. She was still immersed in the touch just made by Ye Chenyu. At this moment, he began not to be serious again As soon as I was nervous and relaxed, the originally blocked mood in my heart dispersed inexplicably. "Boss..." Ye Chenyu shouted to the boss who was roasting meat, "bake me a heart." "Good luck!" Ye Chenyu smiled and looked back at Chen Yu. "What you eat makes up what you eat!" Chen Yu didn''t react for a moment. When he saw that ye Chenyu''s evil smile was getting deeper and deeper, he suddenly widened his eyes. "Ye Chenyu, you say I''m short-sighted?" "I didn''t say..." Ye Chenyu looked innocent. "You said it yourself." "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth. Ye Chenyu rubbed Chen''s head again. "You''re actually missing..." his voice became magnetic. "Chen, show your confidence. I''m not as vulnerable to you as you think!" Chapter 1146 Chen Chen quietly looks at Ye Chenyu. He eats meat and drinks At this moment, he was not a legend who had been undercover for many years. Nor is it the God of war in the special police team, nor is it the man who is filled with confidence at will when attacking the wind puppet group Is a person who can make her relax and even understand him. And this man is her boyfriend! The corners of his mouth overflowed with laughter. Chen Yu took back his sight and muttered with an unknown coquettish and anger, "I''m short of heart... Just don''t lack it in the future." Ye Chenyu glanced at Chen Yu lightly. He heard what she said and pretended not to hear it. "Laugh like stealing time." Ye Chenyu said, "I don''t know. I thought I didn''t take medicine today." "Yes, yes, I just forgot to take my medicine." Chen Yu glanced, "and what''s the ghost of stealing time?" "Aren''t you women afraid of old age?" Ye Chenyu said casually, "stealing time is thinking that you are getting younger and younger." "..." Chen Yu was stunned and then smiled, "I don''t need to steal time. I''m young and in my prime." "Yes... You are young." Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu seriously. Seeing her, he deliberately hit her, "it''s just that your years have been used to grow a face." Ye Yiyu glared at his thick eyes, didn''t he "Tut Tut, very quick response." "..." Chen Chen gritted his teeth, "I''m telling the truth." She lifted her chin slightly. "I''m young compared to you!" Ye Chenyu leaned casually against the plastic chair, and his hand holding the beer bottle hung casually aside, just a pair of deep eyes, which gradually solidified with Chen Yu''s words. But for a moment, his eyes looked at the face full of collagen and gradually became hot. Yes, she is not younger than him. Nearly ten years younger If there is a generation gap at the age of three, he has three! Chen Yu was a little hairy when he looked at him, "that... I don''t think you''re old!" She said, but at last she was amused by herself She was not comforting. She just stepped on it again. "So, you are not a little girl in my eyes." Ye Chenyu restrained his eyes, smiled in the corners of his mouth, and took a drink from the wine bottle. It looks as if it is his usual evil charm, but look carefully, there is uncontrollable spoil in the depths of his eyes. No, it''s all said. When a woman finds a boyfriend, she must be as happy as her father dotes on her daughter. Ye Chenyu lowered his eyes, shook his head slightly and smiled. He felt that he had not experienced serious love for many years In this way, he was very aggressive and wanted to give Chen what he could do. Chen Chen naturally didn''t understand what ye Chenyu was thinking at the moment. He just argued and joked at the same time. He said that since he was a little girl, his uncle should have a good pain in the future. It was a joke to say "Uncle" at the moment, but later, when ye Chenyu tried to reclaim Chen Yu''s land that belonged to him alone in the dead of night, he said, "uncle, spare your life" and "uncle, I can''t do it" Ye Chenyu can''t wait to die on Chen Yu. He also realized that if a woman is smaller than a man and is usually strong, gentle and coquettish, you have no room to parry at all. The kind of psychology that wants to pick all the stars in the sky to her is to marry a "daughter" and come back to pet?! "Ye Chenyu..." "Make it sound better." Ye Chenyu was dissatisfied. Chen Yu was stunned and then shouted with laughter: "Uncle..." "..." Ye Chenyu pulled out from the corner of his mouth, "that''s still Ye Chenyu!" "Hahaha!" Chen Chen smiled uncontrollably, "you don''t call me Chen Chen, too." "There''s still a sister." "That doesn''t count!" Chen Yu skimmed his mouth. "Well..." Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu, "baby? Baby? Little heart? Little apple... Little fruit?!" "..." Chen Yu stared. "You think you can dance square dance!" "Hahaha..." This time, it was Ye Chenyu''s turn to laugh. Chen Chen hummed in his nose and was used to Ye Chenyu''s carelessness... But he was very warm in his heart. "I''m serious with you!" "Well, you said..." "My old Chen said, you can''t support me." Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu carefully and thought to give him a preventive injection first. When he turned back, old Chen said worse words. He should not be surprised. Ye Chenyu looked puzzled, "eh, aren''t you going to raise me?" "..." Chen Shu glanced at Ye Chenyu, who was not sensitive to this issue, and felt a little relieved. She leaned slightly on the table and was a little discouraged in her voice. "No, just take two bottles of wine and get Lao Chen drunk!" "No, I changed my strategy." Ye Chenyu shook his head. Chen Chen''s eyes lit up, "what?" Ye Chenyu looked at the beautiful little face shining, deliberately leaned over mysteriously, and said in Chen Yu''s ear, "I don''t care about him, I''ll take you to elope!" "..." Chen Yu took a swipe at the corner of his mouth, looked at his face close to him and pulled at the corner of his mouth, "you won!" Paused, "it''s estimated that Lao Chen can be mad directly." Ye Chenyu hooked up the evil ruffian at the corner of his mouth. When Chen Yu slightly tooted his mouth, he quickly kissed her at the corner of her mouth, then got up and said as if nothing had happened: "I''m used to it when I''m angry. Later, we''re not angry with your old Chen. I''m not sure he''s not used to it." What ye Chenyu said, Chen didn''t listen. Or I heard it, but I couldn''t react What was he doing? He attacked her in public! His heart was beating wildly, and Chen''s face was as red as a tomato The night in Los Angeles seems to be rendered pink by the stars. In the ink palace, which is already very dark, the stars seem to lose their color under the ink night The waves are surging rhythmically, and the sound of ''clattering, clattering'' brings different dignity to the quiet night. Mo palace castle has fallen into a dead silence, and everything is quiet. Star fell asleep quietly. His little face lost some blood because of illness. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of star''s bed. The faint night light outside fell on him through the glass and pulled his figure out of the ground. Lonely, dark! It seems that only these two words can describe this gorgeous man at the moment. There is no emotion in the beautiful face. A pair of long and narrow eyes, quietly looking at star, clearly looks like there is no emotion, but it makes people feel thousands of thoughts. In the East, the fish belly gradually appears white. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly when the first touch of the morning sun fell warm on the sea level. He stayed with star all night and expected him to wake up, but at this moment... He was suddenly afraid of him waking up. Time, little by little. When the sun slipped out of the sea level, star''s eyes trembled slightly, hummed in his small nose, and slowly opened his eyes Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were slightly frozen. When he saw star wake up, he felt a burst of joy across his eyes. Star opened his eyes and looked at Shi Shaoqin with big, bright eyes like Obsidian ¡°Star¡­¡­¡± Chapter 1147 Star gently fanned his eyes, and his black eyes twinkled in the morning light Shi Shaoqin''s heart was raised because he was not as dependent as before. It seemed that he was out of control and was suffocated by external forces. ¡°Star£¿£¡¡± Shi Shaoqin shouted softly again. In the voice, there is an unknown embarrassment, as well as a general uneasiness. Star fans his eyes again and looks at Shi Shaoqin''s face. He subconsciously grabs it with his small hand. Children don''t know how to control. Some chubby little hands held Shi Shaoqin''s face and used their strength. But at the moment, Shi Shaoqin didn''t know how painful it was. He just looked at star with narrow eyes. "Star," Shi Shaoqin said in a slightly frozen voice, "I... who am I?" When he asked this, Shi Shaoqin could clearly feel that the position of his heart kept jumping. Such urgency, mixed with resistance under fear. Star seemed to be very tangled, with big eyes, looking at Shi Shaoqin all the time. Time, second by second, is passing in the waiting It was only a moment, but Shi Shaoqin seemed to feel the sound of his heart falling into the abyss with the push of time. Uncontrolled self mockery, good-looking lips also burst up. Shi Shaoqin suppressed his loss and asked softly, "do you want to get up?" "Stone..." Just as Shi Shaoqin asked for words, star shouted softly, his voice filled with anxiety. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes, which had sunk, lit up in an instant. It was a sudden surprise of loss, like the sunshine quietly squeezed in the dark The corners of Shi Shaoqin''s mouth gradually rose, and that kind of smile instantly spread over Junyan and slowly spread out at the bottom of his eyes. Shi Shaoqin picked up star. At that moment, unprecedented satisfaction filled his heart. Even, I feel that as long as star is around, his world is perfect. But soon, Shi Shaoqin found that star was not so lively and became a little silent. It seems that everything around us is full of defensive psychology. Qingqing wants to wash star, but the little guy hugs Shi Shaoqin and doesn''t let go. Shi Shaoqin looked at the sad Qingqing, then comforted star and took him to wash himself "After breakfast, there will be a check..." Shi Shaoqin said softly. "Stone is with you, huh?" Star blinked, opened his mouth and nodded. After breakfast, Shi Shaoqin took star to the examination room. Xi Cheng and the doctor have been waiting for a long time In the whole process, Shi Shaoqin didn''t leave, but the eyebrow peaks gradually screwed together. Even, there is a fact in front of him, waiting for him to determine. "What''s going on?" Shi Shaoqin asked in a frozen voice when he saw Xi Cheng coming. Xi Cheng''s face was heavy, "the composition of silence is 0.01% thicker than that detected yesterday. At this speed..." Xi Cheng didn''t go on, but looked at Shi Shaoqin with concern. The strangeness of silence is that the more you care, the more you forget. I will still remember Qin Shao today, most likely because star''s subconscious dependence on Qin Shao But as the concentration of silence in the body becomes heavier and heavier, star must forget qinshao first. This result is somewhat unacceptable to Xi Cheng. Naturally, Shi Shaoqin is more difficult to accept Many times, we are sad because we know the result, but we can''t face it, and we are even more unwilling to face it. Shi Shaoqin thought he would never encounter such a situation in his life, but it turned out that God had never let him go. The waves kept beating on the beach in the sun. Under the sun, the sea is like a layer of spar, which is eye-catching. Shi Shaoqin stood quietly by the sea, leaving the world lonely and distressing. Shi juechi stood far away, looking at Shi Shaoqin, who was standing in the sun, but was cold and could not feel the temperature, and frowned slightly. "Jue Shao..." Kani shouted and looked at Shi Shaoqin in the distance. "What does Xi Cheng say?" Shi juechi asked. Carney sighed heavily before opening his mouth and replied, "star''s situation is not very optimistic..." Shi Jue Chi glanced at Xi Cheng. At the beginning, Mo Mo was injected with silence. In order to make the "gratitude and resentment" between Shaoqin and Beichen not involve others, it can be said that he participated in the whole process at the beginning. Although the analytical drug silenceds for silence was given to foam, it was obvious that the immature drug did not have much effect. Fortunately, when Mo Mo was pregnant with Xiao Yan, progesterone had a restraining effect on silence Considering this, many things that we all guessed have been further confirmed. Star is Gu Yan, the child who has lost his life, Mo Mo and Beichen. "I''m afraid the drug can''t be studied for a while," Carney''s voice became more and more dignified. "Unlike that Jane foam is taken externally, star is..." he paused. "It''s brought out by the mother." Stone Jue Chi''s eyebrows were already frowning together. "Xi Cheng raised a possibility..." Carney said, silent. Shi Jue Chi seemed to guess something, "is it a coincidence or fate?" Shi juechi''s nose was a little sour, and his eyes were full of heartache when he looked at Shi Shaoqin. At the beginning, Xiao Yan was really dead, although they had extravagant hopes. He didn''t know how much effort Shaoqin had put into saving Xiaoyan, nor why he would rather have Mo Mo bear with him for this matter than return Xiaoyan to Mo mo. But now, he also selfishly doesn''t want star to return to Mo mo. Mo Mo is not lonely. At least, she has Beichen, Xiaojie and a child who has been formed in her stomach But Shaoqin, he only has star! "What does Xi Cheng say?" Shi juechi asked. "Alas..." Carney sighed again with a helpless voice. "Extract Jianmo amniotic fluid and blood, mix silenceds to curb the growth of silence in star, and then develop drugs to solve it." Although Shi juechi thought of this, he still frowned. Draw amniotic fluid, if there is an accident... The child in the foam belly will miscarry! But if you don''t catch up with the time, star may be in danger It seems that there is a solution, but now it is in a dilemma. No one can guarantee what problems will happen to the foam''s body after extracting amniotic fluid Although, such a situation only accounts for a part of the accident. "Mo Mo can''t lose the baby in her belly anymore..." Shi juechi''s voice covered with sadness. "She won''t live." Having lost Xiao Yan, Mo Mo almost collapsed. It''s not easy to come out, in case this But if star doesn''t save "There are two sides to every problem." Carney said, "even if Jane Mo had an accident, at least she saved star." "Can you guarantee that Xi Cheng''s idea will work for star?" Shi juechi asked. Chapter 1148 "I..." Carney choked and shook his head. Shi juechi glanced at him, sighed softly, and looked at Shi Shaoqin again. "Didn''t Shaoqin think of that?" The voice of Shi juechi was mixed with sadness under heartache. Now the question is, if the amniotic fluid of foam is extracted, which leads to fetal abortion, how can foam face it? Even for star, what if the final result is that star is not saved successfully? Such a double blow will kill Mo Mo directly. Even, it will drive Beichen crazy Shaoqin is more painful and difficult than anyone at the moment. Carney was silent and sighed deeply. He didn''t know how to say Originally, Mo palace seemed to have some popularity because of star. But now Alas! Carney sighed again without saying anything and turned to the factory. Shi juechi walked towards Shi Shaoqin with heavy footsteps. Feeling someone behind him, Shi Shaoqin glanced back slightly and then took back his sight. The two brothers stood so flush, looking at the sea without saying a word. "What are you going to do?" After a while, Shi juechi asked in the end. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly, "I don''t know..." Shi juechi looked at Shi Shaoqin and heard such an uncertain answer from his mouth. He was surprised. Although he knew Shaoqin was uncertain. "Are you going to send star back to them?" Shi juechi was silent and asked. Shi Shaoqin was not surprised that Shi Jue Chi would guess the identity of star. He didn''t answer. A layer of sadness was shrouded in his beautiful face "Star, it''s time to wake up." With that, Shi Shaoqin turned and walked to the castle. Shi juechi didn''t move. He just looked at Shi Shaoqin''s action. Until his figure disappeared in the afterglow, he converged his sight and looked at the sea connected with the sky again. "Shaoqin, people are selfish." Shi Jue Chi''s mouth crossed astringently, "at this moment, I suddenly hope you can be more selfish!" The words were dispersed by the wind. What remains is just boundless helplessness and sadness When Shi Shaoqin returned to his bedroom, star just woke up. The little guy suddenly lost his old vitality and was obviously quiet. Even, in the eyes, there is a sense of strangeness to the surrounding environment Shi Shaoqin dressed him, and the little guy didn''t make a fuss. He just looked at Shi Shaoqin. Silence will damage his memory with every sleep, but he won''t sleep because his body will be tired, unless he has the willpower like Mo''er at the beginning. But star is just a child "I''m a stone..." Shi Shaoqin said softly. He was buttoning star. His eyes drooped slightly and collected the sadness from the bottom of his eyes. "Remember?" Star looked at Shi Shaoqin in a daze. When he buttoned his last button, his little arm hugged Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin''s heart suddenly soured. Whether star remembers him or not, Shi Shaoqin doesn''t know. All he knows is that the little guy is instinctively dependent on him at the moment, which is the subconscious developed by each other day and night in the past two years. Just like at the beginning, Mo''er would have the same feeling about Beichen. But what about such dependence? He saved star, but he still hurt him, didn''t he?! Such an idea, like a knife, kept gouging out and cutting Shi Shaoqin''s heart, dripping with blood. "Stone..." Star felt Shi Shaoqin''s sadness and seemed to finally remember who he was holding. After rubbing his small face against Shi Shaoqin, his big eyes looked at him without blinking. Shi Shaoqin covered up his sadness and smiled softly. "Your sunflower seeds haven''t been dried yet. The sun is very good now. Do you want to continue?" Star couldn''t remember what Shi Shaoqin said, but he nodded subconsciously. Shi Shaoqin gently rubbed star''s head, picked him up and walked out The sun outside is very hot. Shi Shaoqin wears a hat with a big brim for star. The little guy is beautiful and soft. Now he can turn a group of people with such a big hat. Of course, such a scene, if it is in the past At this moment, everyone watched Shi Shaoqin drying sunflower seeds with star, and there was only a depressed sadness. Qingqing turned her head and secretly wiped her tears. She doesn''t blame star for not remembering her. She just wants star not to forget Qin Shao Qin Shao is so pathetic. Even if some memory is lost, the nature of children will not change. Playing with sunflower seeds, star has a smile on his small face. From time to time, he also looks at Shi Shaoqin who is helping him. "Stone, peel!" Star grabbed a handful of sunflower seeds in his small hand and put them into Shi Shaoqin''s hand. "OK." Shi Shaoqin answered softly and began to peel sunflower seeds. He peeled one and star ate one. From time to time, he smiled at him with satisfaction Shi Shaoqin will also give star a gentle smile when star smiles at him. In the sun, one big and one small, sitting on the ground with sunflower seeds, one peeling and one eating At this moment, everyone watching this scene is begging that time is not old. How good it is to stop at this moment. "Is it delicious?" Shi Shaoqin asked. "Yes." Star''s eyes are shining and nodding, because his mouth is stuffed with melon seeds, and his saliva overflows from the corner of his mouth. Shi Shaoqin laughed and spread his hand. Qingqing hurriedly put a handkerchief on his hand. "I like it. I''ll peel the stone for you later, okay?" Shi Shaoqin asked, carefully wiping the saliva for star. "OK..." star answered skillfully and grabbed sunflower seeds for Shi Shaoqin. "I can''t eat any more today," Shi Shaoqin said in a soft voice. "Otherwise, if it''s too oily, your stomach will be uncomfortable." "Eat, peel!" Star''s mouth was curled and his little face was firm. Shi Shaoqin looked at star with burning eyes. If such a thing happened in the past, even if star was cute, he would not agree. But today, the words of rejection turned around in my mouth and nodded at the compromise in the end. "Another half, okay?" Shi Shaoqin asked. Star thought and nodded happily. Shi Shaoqin silently continues to peel melon seeds for star. He compromises because he doesn''t know if there will be such a chance in the future?! Secretly mocked himself. He was afraid to continue thinking He has been used to star around for almost two years. He doesn''t know whether he will get used to it without star in the next days. What might we do? His baby, he doesn''t want him to suffer! Sadness is out of control around us. Even the hot sunshine can''t be dissipated Star ate happily and had no sense of leaving his stone. Xu is unable to feel Shi Shaoqin''s emotions because of the damage of his memory In addition to the subconscious dependence, he is just a heartless child at the moment. Shi Shaoqin''s mouth was filled with a light smile, and his big palm gently rubbed star''s head. He was reluctant to give up his eyes. In this way, he was uncontrolled and spread Chapter 1149 Huaxi department store. According to Jian Mo''s current words, Li Xiaoyue is busier than her Gu. She makes an appointment to go shopping. Generally, she doesn''t have time. Finally, the last lawsuit was over. It was a rare leisure. Li Xiaoyue took the pregnant woman out for a "Sports" walk. By the way, he bought less clothes for Xiaojie and gifts for the future baby. "Buy less. He usually wears school uniforms at school, and he doesn''t have much chance to wear private clothes." Jian Mo sits on the rest stool and looks at the rise of Li Xiaoyue''s pick This little Jay must be cute and that little Jay must be handsome. Wow, this suit must be cool "..." Jane Mo has a headache. "Now I''m Xiaojie''s second mother and my aunt. Of course, I want to buy double copies..." Li Xiaoyue said and continued to choose. Jian Jie doesn''t lack these things, but they are their own intentions. After Jian Mo said, he didn''t care and let Li Xiaoyue pick them up. "All these are packed and sent to Changhuan garden." Li Xiaoyue finally stopped and asked the clerk to send all her shopping directly to Jian Mo''s house. "Finally stopped?!" Jane Mo shook her head. "My grandparents have bought baby things since they were born. They are ten years old... I think I can open a baby store later." "Your parents are so happy now. Don''t deprive them." Li Xiaoyue said, helping Jian Mo up, "let''s go and have something to eat." "Yes." Jane Mo answered. They didn''t go anywhere else, so they found a restaurant to eat in the food city on the eighth floor of the mall. "Xiaoyan, slow down and be careful to bump into the baby in aunt and aunt''s belly." A mother reluctantly held the naughty child. She looked at Jane Mo and nodded apologetically. While "teaching" the child, she took her to the table. Li Xiaoyue looks at Jian Mo with some worry. The child''s name is the same as Xiao Yan. Plus the age, it looks like it''s only about two years old. Will it remind Niu''s memory?! Jane Mo kept looking at the child, waiting to be blocked by the plants in the restaurant, before converging her sight. Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue find a seat to sit down. Unfortunately, they can see the bear child Xiaoyan whose mother is very helpless. Li Xiaoyue rolled his eyes secretly and thought, isn''t this deliberately against you? "Hey, there''s still a seat by the window. Let''s sit over there?" Li Xiaoyue pretended not to know and asked. "Just sit here." Jane Mo''s expression is normal. Li Xiaoyue''s face collapsed slightly, "girl, you..." "I''m fine." Jane Mo smiled. "I''ve been sad, sad, and even wanted to die for so long... But it''s all over." After a pause, "it''s also a lie to say to put it down completely. Whether it''s your own child or to be born." Li Xiaoyue put his hand on Jian Mo''s hand and silently gave her strength. "I don''t know why. Occasionally, I can feel Xiao Yan... It''s like he''s still alive." Jane Mo also lost her mind for a moment and returned to normal. Li Xiaoyue smiled at the corners of her mouth and couldn''t bear to say that it was caused by missing too much. "Xiao Yue, sometimes I always wonder if there will be any chance, just like the God reversal in the TV series. In fact... Xiao Yan is still happy to live in a corner of the world." Jane Mo supported the table with her arms and said with a smile, "although you know it''s impossible, you''ll be happy for no reason." "Girl..." "I''m really fine." Jian Mo knew that Li Xiaoyue was worried about her, "I just think about it." After a pause, she continued with a smile: "if there is a way to keep Xiao Yan alive, I''d rather I miss... Xiao Yue, do you understand what I mean?" Li Xiaoyue nodded. It''s cruel for parents that children are not around their parents. But if you can live, that is the greatest happiness for your parents It''s just that it''s possible, but it''s never possible. "Just think about it!" Li Xiaoyue said, "maybe Xiao Yan really got some chance to live, maybe... He was reincarnated in another child and was born in this world..." "Yes!" Jane Mo smiled and lowered her eyes, stroking her already big stomach, "so I''m not sad now. As long as I have a beautiful heart, Xiao Yan will feel my blessing and miss for her no matter what world he is in." At the right time, the baby in the belly felt his mother''s touch and kicked his belly Jane''s smile foamed. Xiao Yan, my mother believes that no matter where you are, you will be strong and grow up happily, right?! No one answered Jane Mo, but the baby in her stomach interacted with her again, as if Xiaoyan was in her stomach at the beginning! ¡­¡­ Eastern Swat. On the whole training playground, there was a serious silence, with dignified and reluctant sadness. The director of the Eastern District looked at the crowd and sighed: "the police force has lost a very good talent. Everyone has their own aspirations. I hope you can bless ye Chenyu." No one speaks, and discipline does not allow leaders to refute or talk about anything when they speak. At this moment, people who had only been with Ye Chenyu for half a year In other words, apart from the time of the task, many people have been together for two or three months. But everyone is not willing. "Chen Yu, it''s up to you to communicate." "Yes!" Chen Ying answered and looked around at all the personnel of the special police force after the director of the Eastern District left. "After receiving the approval from the superior, ye Dui is allowed to leave." Chen Yu looked at Qiao Rui, "when the new captain of the special police team hasn''t arrived, Qiao Rui will temporarily replace the captain of the special police team until a new captain takes office." Qiao Rui stood at attention with a serious face, "yes!" Chen Yu is able to assign tasks quickly. At the moment, she is not the little woman in front of Ye Chenyu, but the police overlord flower with the same legendary color of the police force. "Yang Jinyu..." "Here!" Chen Yu smiled. "Your Ye team said that you will take a rest in rotation next Tuesday and wait for you at the police school shooting training ground." As soon as Yang Jinyu heard this, he suddenly looked at Chen Yu. In his eyes, there was an unspeakable complex emotion. "He promised and never failed to do it." Chen Yu smiled and said, "break up!" She looked at Qiao Rui again. "Qiao Rui, come with me." "Yes!" Qiao Rui answered and signaled the teams and groups to take them away before following Chen. They walked around the playground, silent at first. Qiao Rui held it for a while and didn''t hold it, "it''s too sudden." "But you''re not surprised, are you?" "..." Qiao Rui turned sideways. "He was celebrating brother Yu''s return two days ago. Today he said he would leave... Where is brother?!" "Sorry!" Chen Yu said and stopped slowly. Qiao Rui looked at Chen Yu blankly and asked with a puzzled frown, "Chen Ju, what do you say, I''m sorry?" He glanced. "If it''s for brother Yu, I don''t accept it." Chapter 1150 "No, that''s what I want to say!" Chen Yu said seriously. "Ah?!" Qiao Rui was so confused that he couldn''t respond, "what did you tell me? I''m sorry?" Chen Yu sighed, "because if it weren''t for me, maybe he wouldn''t leave." "..." Qiao Rui''s mouth moved, but he didn''t know what to say. It took a long time for Qiao Rui to react. "You mean, because of you, brother Yu chose to leave the special police team?" Qiao Rui asked with confirmation. Chen Yu leaned to look at the training ground ahead There are obstacle training, shooting training and physical training. As if she could see ye Chenyu leading the whole SWAT team in training. Even, some people who did not admit defeat challenged him like Yang Jinyu, and many people gathered around him, cheering and shouting. Finally, those who were taken care of by Ye Chenyu were also inadvertently aroused their fighting spirit. He is suitable here Because there is blood, struggle, justice and his faith. "Because I have no sense of security..." Chen Yu has nothing to hide in front of Qiao Rui. "He knows too well what people around him need. He does it, but he doesn''t say it, but I know him." Qiao Rui was silent. I can''t say whether brother Yu''s practice is the love of children or the responsibility of men. "So I''m sorry. I told you." Chen Yu said, "I know you have a belief in Ye Chenyu, which comes from getting along with him in recent months. If you don''t say it, it doesn''t mean you''re not angry with his sudden departure..." Joe Rui was embarrassed and his face was pierced. "But I respect him." Chen Yu''s voice was always calm. "You think I''m selfish or whatever. I''m happy when he leaves." Qiao Rui pulled at the corner of his mouth, "sister Yu, I''m angry, but I''m definitely not as angry as I thought." When he shouted like this, he was talking completely in private. "After brother Yu''s detoxification, I think it''s right for him to leave." Qiao Rui copied his hands into the pockets of his training clothes, and his strong body showed perseverance that did not belong to his age. "After so many years of undercover and continuous tasks, everyone should stop and look at life." He smiled down his eyes and looked at Chen. "When he left suddenly, I think people in the criminal police team have ideas, but everyone should understand. Such a drug injection can survive or even quit. No one here thinks he can." It''s not just faith, it''s a miracle. Who doesn''t care? But how many addicts really quit drugs for the people they care about?! Pornography, gambling, drugs! These three are the best interpretation of evil and will completely erase human nature They know what they do best. "Thank you for understanding..." Chen Shuo said, "he treats you as brothers, so I don''t know how to tell you." "I see." Qiao Rui shrugged. "I haven''t been in contact with brother Yu for a long time, but I know this man." He smiled. "Opening a private detective agency is also in a circle." Qiao Rui looked at Chen Yu with teasing eyes, "but I''m afraid she can''t shout in the future. I have to shout my sister-in-law!" Chen Yu blushed when he heard this, but he soon stopped it. "Come on, don''t pretend... I shouted ''sister-in-law'', I don''t know how happy I am!" Qiao Rui sighed, "Alas, from beginning to end, I think the biggest winner is you." Chen Yu chuckled, "that''s!" Looking at Chen Xiaojiao''s small appearance, the police uniform couldn''t resist her beauty. Qiao Rui sighed again, "hero, I''m always sad about the beauty pass!" Then he turned around "Chen Ju, I won''t give you a gift. This person works for two people. If you feel sorry, remember to find a way to apply for some bonus for me. I won''t mind or be embarrassed!" Qiao Rui walked and waved to Chen Yu behind him, with a relieved smile in his mouth Chen Shu smiled helplessly and said to Qiao Rui, "it''s necessary to serve the people and have ideological consciousness!" "..." Qiao Rui suddenly stopped, turned back, looked at Chen and gritted his teeth, "you leaders don''t want to apply for your private money, so you can''t reward us for the people!" Then he shook his head and turned to the training ground. ¡­¡­ Mo palace. Before dinner, Xi Cheng and the doctor examined star again and took a blood sample for further research. Morsi was also called back by Shi Shaoqin and arrived at dinner. "Let me see the inspection report first." Morsi stood in the corridor, eating a sandwich and reading the report. No way, Qin Shao''s voice is like killing him immediately. Where does he have time to enjoy delicious food?! Morsi said he was wronged Didn''t Qin Shao study silence at the beginning? Moreover, injecting that woman with silence is also qinshao! Of course, he didn''t dare to say that or complain. "I thought about several schemes, and finally felt that it was most likely to be contained by using maternal amniotic fluid and blood as drug introduction, combined with silence DS." Xi Cheng opens his mouth. Morsi''s mouth was full of sandwiches. After listening to Xi Cheng''s words, he nodded, but made a bolt of "um". Xi Cheng''s face collapsed. He had thought that morsi could have a better solution. But obviously, he hopes too much After eating the sandwich in three or two bites, morsi said, "but at present, your concern is that extracting amniotic fluid will pose a threat to the thinking baby, right?" Xi Cheng rolled his eyes, "nonsense!" "When did Qin Shao become so kind?" Morsi was a little surprised. Xi Cheng pulled the corners of his mouth and said with a smile: "don''t worry, when star leaves, he will be more bloody than before... I hope you can eat sandwiches so easily at that time." Morsi was stunned and didn''t understand. Xi Cheng smiled more. "You will be the first target of Qin Shao!" "Why?" Morsi was stunned. Xi Cheng patted morsi sympathetically, "who made you study silence?!" "But that''s what Qin Shao ordered!" Morsi''s face wrinkled. "I know..." Xi Cheng raised his eyebrows. "But Qin Shao can''t do it to himself? Then you can only bear hardships..." "..." morsi stared in amazement, and the corners of his mouth twitched. "So, if you want to be less kind, old man, come on!" Xi Cheng compared a fist refueling posture, patted morsi''s arm, and turned into the examination room. Morsi still stood in place, frowning and understanding Xi Cheng''s words When he finally understood what he meant, he hurried into the examination room with a frightened face. Chapter 1151 Mo palace is filled with depression because of star''s situation. Shi Shaoqin personally fed star for dinner. Everyone saw that his nose was a little sour. That kind of feeling is like, if you do one, you will lose one Shi juechi sat quietly opposite and looked at the little guy. Although he was no longer lively, it was obvious that he still had a dependent smile on his face when facing Shaoqin. "That..." star pointed to braised prawns. "OK." Shi Shaoqin answered and peeled star himself. His movements are elegant and careful. Put the peeled shrimp into the star bowl and watch the little guy eat happily. Shi Shaoqin''s smile is mixed with some sadness He could have endured darkness, but if he hadn''t seen the sun! "More..." star said with a smile as he looked at Shi Shaoqin and stuffed his mouth with unfinished food. "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered softly, took another shrimp and began to peel star Everyone forgot the action and just looked at the big one and the small one silently. A heartless eating, a more spoiled treatment. Shi juechi couldn''t bear to see it. She had no mood to eat at all. If this is the final outcome, should he strongly return star to Mo Mo when he guesses the identity of star? The nose suddenly became sour, which hurt the heart. Shaoqin was so beautiful. A change made him sink into the boundless darkness Finally, he had the opportunity to feel the sunshine and let him become soft gradually. But why deprive him of his extravagant hopes? He doesn''t want much. He just wants warmth His heart, even his blood, has been frozen for too long For a long time, without strong sunshine and guidance, he didn''t know what to do to get the slightest warmth. Night comes quietly. Because of the influence of silence, star is more and more dependent on Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin looked at star, who was already very tired. He rubbed his head painfully and said softly, "sleep when you''re sleepy, huh?" "Don''t..." star put his small arm around Shi Shaoqin, his small face buried in his neck, and his voice was stuffy. With a slight frown, Shi Shaoqin asked, "why don''t you sleep when you''re sleepy?" Star rubbed Shi Shaoqin again and said softly, "go get the orange. I heard someone say, I fell asleep, and the stone disappeared..." In this way, he and a small needle slowly pierced into Shi Shaoqin''s heart. The pain is penetrating. There was a slight chill in Shi Shaoqin''s eyes, which was a bloodthirsty light. Even though he was unwilling or even unwilling, he didn''t want star to be sad. His star, who wakes up from all kinds of difficulties, is full of sunshine and smile. When was he so sad?! "No..." said Shi Shaoqin, suppressing the surging emotion in his heart. "The stone will be around star and will not disappear." "Didn''t you lie to me?" Star got up and looked at Shi Shaoqin with black eyes. Shi Shaoqin didn''t dare to look directly at star. He never cheated him. He promised him nothing but to do it. But at this moment "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered. Star immediately laughed. How could he, pure and clear, understand that the adult''s "um" is an ambiguous answer? The little guy was already sleepy. After getting Shi Shaoqin''s answer, he couldn''t resist sleepiness any more. After drooping his eyelids several times, he fell asleep. Shi Shaoqin stood by the small bed and looked at star''s sleeping face. If you don''t think about it, the little guy will be the same as before. He is also beautiful when he is asleep Like the stars in the night, even though the ink sky is vast, it can not stop the light he tries to shine. Shi Shaoqin leaned over and gently fell on star''s forehead with a kiss. "Star, thank you for your company..." Shi Shaoqin closed his eyes, his nose was sour, but his voice was full of softness. "Stone lied to you, I promise you, only this time!" Because I will never have a chance to cheat again When you return to your parents, you will eventually forget that the stone that once belonged to you alone in this world has been with you for two and a half years since you were still in your mother''s belly! ¡­¡­ "Mom, I''m back." Zhang Nian opened the door, put the key aside on the locker and changed his shoes. There was no sound of Yang Yi in the room. Zhang Nian frowned slightly and walked towards the bedroom After the fall of Zhangjia, the scenery was no longer. Zhang Zhengtang went to prison because there are too many things involved. It''s impossible to come out in this life. Also because of the fall of Zhang Jia, Yang Yi fell ill all at once. "Mom --" Zhang Nian looked at Yang Yi who fell to the ground, shouted in amazement, and hurried forward to help him. It took a lot of effort to get Yang Yi to the bed. Zhang Nian took the injection and disposable needle out of the drawer Fortunately, she studied nursing before. Now she doesn''t have much money. Her mother doesn''t need to be hospitalized at ordinary times. Her basic problems can be handled. After the injection, looking at Yang Yi who gradually eased her face, Zhang Nian took another routine test such as blood pressure. Seeing that the data was gradually stable, she was a little relieved. His nose was a little sour. Zhang Nian looked at Yang Yi who had lost her former glory and smiled bitterly. "Mom, if you feel uncomfortable, you remember to take medicine. If you bear it, it will only be more serious." Yang Yi didn''t speak. After the injection, her breath gradually calmed down. The medicine she takes now is very expensive. Sometimes when she feels uncomfortable, she will bear it first She doesn''t want her daughter to work so hard. "I thought you were coming back and wanted to get you something to eat." Yang Yi sighed and looked at her daughter painfully, "who knows if she doesn''t work hard, just..." "Don''t worry about me. I have food where I work." Zhang Nian poured Yang Yi a glass of water. "I just don''t trust you, so I came back to have a look. You know, I went to the tutor''s house. Anyway, I''m on my way back." Yang Yi sighed and said nothing more. "I''ll get you some food first..." Zhang Nian said and got up. Yang Yi didn''t stop her, but looked at her daughter''s thin back with red eyes. At the beginning, one thought not only destroyed Zhang Jia, but also hurt his daughter She clearly does what she likes and can live well, but Yang Yi secretly wiped her tears. It''s too late to say anything now. After Zhang Nian got food for Yang Yi, he left the rented house. She now works in a food city during the day and goes to heaven to serve wine at night. Although very tired, it''s enough to bear my mother''s current medical expenses and rent She doesn''t pray now. She just hopes her mother can stick to it. After all, she has nothing left First time, home, favorite job... Nothing! Zhang Nian was walking on the road, and the corners of his mouth were scratched. She took a deep breath, tucked her lower lip, collected the occasional overflow of self pity, and strode towards the direction of heaven night Suddenly "Ah!" "Bang! Bang!" Suddenly there was a noisy voice in front of him. Before Zhang Nian could react, he saw a man riding a motorcycle and rushing from the road to the sidewalk like a madman. Someone can''t dodge, has been hit or tripped. Zhang Nian was stumbling by someone''s backward posture. The whole person immediately staggered and fell back when he was unstable Timely, the locomotive rolled in her direction Chapter 1152 Zhang Nian stared at the locomotive coming straight towards her and wanted to avoid it, but the inertia of her body forced her to fall back The brain is blank in the face of death. At the moment, her only thought is, if she dies, what will her mother do?! "Ah --" The noise is getting louder and louder. Just when Zhang Nian''s eyes are almost out of control and despair, she suddenly thinks That''s fine. If you die, you don''t have to carry anything. Mother doesn''t need to die because of her, and she doesn''t have to live with her guilt for Chu Zixiao and the whole Zhang family. She is just an ordinary person. Her shoulders can''t support so much resentment and hatred. Chu Zixiao''s resentment, the whole Zhangjia''s sarcastic and indifferent eyes She really can''t stand it! Zhang Nian closed her eyes and waited for death. Just when the roar of the locomotive seemed to come to her, her body was suddenly dragged Her hand was on the ground. Because of this drag, she only felt the pricking pain in the palm for a while. Zhang Nian, still in shock, heard the sound of panic and wailing, mixed with pain. It was as if someone was calling her name, but the ringing in her ears made her unable to respond. Crying, shouting. Zhang Nian suddenly woke up and heard a hurried voice saying, "I''ve shed a lot of blood. Call the police..." "Call an ambulance. A child was hit!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Zhang Nian subconsciously looked in the direction of saying that a child had been hit Almost instinctively, she stood up. "Hissing" sound of pain and stuffy overflow Zhang Nian''s lips, but she can''t take care of the injury on her hand. Even the person who had been holding her didn''t find her because she suddenly stood up and habitually fell to the ground. "Let go, let go..." Zhang Nian stirred the crowd, "I''m a nurse, let go!" Someone, get out of the way. Zhang Nian looked at the unconscious child, with blood on one side''s forehead. She was at a loss. She only knew that her mother was crying and hurried forward. Zhang Nian hurriedly examined the child with what she had learned in school and her experience in internship in the hospital. "Sister, don''t worry, I''m a nurse..." Zhang Nian comforted her mother, carefully examined the child, and shouted, "the people around us spread out a little and give some space!" After she roared, she began to continue the preliminary examination. Have a pair of eyes, quietly looking at Zhang Nian in the crowd The sight, from her serious but nervous face, gradually moved to her vaguely bleeding hand. He frowned slightly, and his eyes became a little deep Ambulances and police cars will come soon Professional doctors and nurses jumped out of the ambulance and hurried to deal with the injured at the scene. Zhang Nian hurriedly told the doctor his examination results. While listening, the doctor confirmed the child again to see if he could move. "You did a good job..." the doctor asked someone to get the child on the stretcher. "Your treatment gives the child more hope of survival." Zhang Nianzhe smiled, nodded and breathed a sigh of relief. "Miss, are you hurt? Do you need to go to the hospital?" Asked a nurse. "I''m fine, I''ll scratch..." Zhang Nian looked at his hand. "I''ll deal with it myself." The nurse nodded, then got on the ambulance and took the injured people away A shock, but half an hour, became calm. The onlookers gradually dispersed. Zhang Nian remembered at this time that she had just taken her away from the dangerous person She looked around, but she didn''t know who it was in the bustling crowd?! He touched his lower lip, and Zhang Nian looked left and right again. There was no goal. Suddenly, her eyes fell on the big screen in front of her, and the ending subtitles of the news broadcast were playing. Zhang Nian''s eyes widened, ignoring others, turned and ran in the direction of heaven night "Unexpectedly, our Chu debate is very loving." Tang Yu looked at Chu Zixiao with her arms around her chest and said, "tut Tut, it was just a critical moment. If it weren''t for your vigorous posture, she would certainly be the worst one on the scene except for the drunk driver." Chu Zixiao glanced at Tang Yu with an ambiguous face and didn''t speak. Tang Yu looked at the direction of Zhang Nian''s figure and sighed: "tell me about you. You had to bite Zhang Jia at the beginning, but now you''re making other people''s little girls feel pathetic..." he sighed, "but Zixiao, you just didn''t want to die!" Chu Zixiao still didn''t speak, but turned and walked to the parking place "Hey, why are you going?" "Something." "You''re here. Don''t you go in and sit down?" Tang Yu was dissatisfied. "No mood." Chu Zixiao kept saying. Tang Yu opened his mouth and frowned at Chu Zixiao''s back. "What''s the matter?" Tang Yu didn''t understand. He shrugged and went into the restaurant. After Chu Zixiao got on the bus, he just kept silent and started the bus The traffic flow converged on the road, and Chu Zixiao was caught in it, and he was a little agitated. When the car stopped at the gate of heaven night, he looked at the flashing neon and suddenly frowned. How did he drive here?! Chu Zixiao frowned, got out of the car and threw the car key to the parking lot. Chu Zixiao went to the box he often went to, "find 325 to serve wine," paused, "find some medical supplies to deal with bruises." "OK." All that''s left is the waiter in the box. He became more and more agitated, pulled his tie and unbuttoned his collar. In her mind, Zhang Nian was stunned by the danger. In a flash, it became the way she hurried to deal with the child regardless of the injury on her hand. With a slight frown, Chu Zixiao became more and more agitated. Even, an idea suddenly crossed my mind If it weren''t for him, Zhang Nian would still be her nurse! "Dong Dong!" There was a knock at the door, and then Zhang Nian came in with the wine ordered by Chu Zixiao When Zhang Nian saw that it was Chu Zixiao, he was stunned at first, then restrained his mood and came forward with a light smile on the corner of his mouth. Just like serving other guests, she squatted and knelt on the tea table and silently put the wine and fruit platter on the tea table. "Sir, do you need to start the wine now?" Zhang Nian asked. Chu Zixiao''s eyes fell on Zhang Nian''s face. After watching for a few seconds, his eyes fell on her hand She wore a pair of decorative gloves to cover her wound. Slightly frown, Chu Zixiao is a little angry She is a nurse herself. I don''t know. Is it possible that the wound will be infected?! Feeling that Chu Zixiao''s mood was wrong, Zhang Nian lowered her eyes and asked, "Sir, do you need to open the wine?" "Have you dealt with the injury on your hand?" Chu Zixiao didn''t answer the question. Zhang Nian suddenly raised her eyes and looked up at Chu Zixiao, surprised at the bottom of her eyes. At the right time, the former waiter knocked on the door and came in "Chu Shao, the medical case you want." "Put it down." The waiter put down the medical box and then withdrew. Zhang Nian glanced at the eye medicine box, then looked at Chu Zixiao, raised his lower lip and asked, "was that you just now?" When she asked this, she felt uneasy. At that time, because she was trying to rescue the child, she also forgot to see who saved her. But now Chu Zixiao knew that her hand was hurt He came here specially? Order her wine just for the injury on her hand? Zhang Nian thought and laughed at himself. The little joy that had risen was instantly extinguished by himself. No matter how much love you once had, you can''t beat the destruction of your family, can you?! Chapter 1153 Chu Zixiao didn''t answer, just a pair of eyes, looking at Zhang Nian''s expression deeply. From doubt to expectation, and then to the present silence, she pulled his heart like a rope. That feeling made him extremely anxious. "If it were you, I''m afraid I wouldn''t have any ability to repay my help except to say ''thank you''." Zhang Nian took the wine opener and began to start the wine. She moves skillfully and quietly. Took the cup, poured a cup for Chu Zixiao and put it in front of him "Sir," Zhang Nian''s voice is neither humble nor arrogant, and some are just the service attitude of serving wine, "please!" Chu Zixiao frowned and became more and more upset about Zhang Nian''s alienation. "Medicine!" Chu Zixiao''s voice was slightly heavy. "OK." Zhang Nian responded without imaginary resistance. Her attitude is clearly what Chu Zixiao wants. However, obedience, he can''t say the taste Without affectation, Zhang Nian opened the medicine box, took off his decorative gloves and began to deal with the wound. Ben was late just now. The foreman saw that it was not easy for her to take care of her mother, so he didn''t say much She really didn''t have time to deal with the wound on her hand. She just washed it with water. In the face of death, ostrich mentality is one thing, but now she doesn''t cherish herself. She doesn''t have the ability of affectation. Chu Zixiao quietly watched Zhang Nian deal with the wound. Without thinking, he asked, "if you still want to go back to Huakang, I can..." "No." Zhang Nian interrupted Chu Zixiao. She didn''t look at him and concentrated on the wound. "I''m fine now," Zhang Nian said calmly. "Besides, the salary of nurses can''t meet my current situation... I can''t work part-time during shift." What she said was the truth. Even her voice was very calm without emotional inclusion. But it happened that such words fell in Chu Zixiao''s ears, especially harsh. "Whatever you want!" Chu Zixiao put down his words and got up indifferently. He didn''t say anything and left in a big step. There was a bang, and the door was mixed with hidden anger. Zhang Nian''s action to deal with the wound stalled, his mouth filled with astringency, and then continued to deal with it It''s night. At the time of family reunion, there are always joys and sorrows in some corners. At the time of dinner in Los Angeles, Mo palace is getting late at night. In the ancient castle of Mo palace, all the people were summoned and stood there in silence one by one. With the solidification of the breath, the body began to tremble uncontrollably Because star, the people in Mo palace, especially those in the ancient castle, have gradually ignored Shi Shaoqin''s indifference and bloodthirsty. When Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the crowd with a cold breath, everyone''s heart beat intermittently because of his dignity. "Who chewed the root of his tongue behind his back?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was gentle, but it showed invisible pressure. All the people raised it. I don''t know what Shi Shaoqin is talking about at the moment? "No one admits it?" Shi Shaoqin said softly, and the air became cold again. Still no one answered. Even at this moment, everyone had seen the God of death waving to them At this moment, we all have an expectation I hope star can suddenly appear. But at this time, not to mention that star is uncomfortable these two days, he has fallen asleep as usual. "Since no one admits..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was a little cold. "Then don''t appear in the ancient castle again!" Everyone''s eyes are filled with panic "There is no need for gossip in the castle!" Shi Shaoqin''s voice became colder and colder. "Ink palace, you don''t need it!" A word came out, and suddenly there was a sound of begging for mercy and wailing. Shi Shaoqin turned coldly, as if the voices of those people had nothing to do with him. Qing Qing''s eyes turned with the sound of Shi Shaoqin leaving, then looked at the people waiting for death, and hurried to catch up with them "Qin Shao..." Qing Qing''s voice was urgent. Shi Shaoqin stopped. Qingqing smiled at the corner of her mouth, "star wouldn''t want to see you like this!" Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed gradually "I don''t know what happened or who said what." Qingqing''s voice choked, "but I know that star is very kind. He can''t see a person punished, let alone see you angry." With that, Qingqing''s eyes turned red. She is an orphan. Qin Shao saved her at the beginning. Although she knew very well that Qin Shao''s purpose was not out of goodwill, but to do things for him in the end But she was lucky. From the beginning, she was assigned to take care of star. Because of this, she understands star''s dependence on qinshao and qinshao''s feelings for star more than anyone else. She loves the person who gently amazes the years in front of star. More distressed, he will become very cold-blooded and ruthless again Touch the soft person and become cold and hard again. It''s more cruel than never being soft. Tears, so uncontrollably overflow the eyes. Hot across the cheek, in the corner of the mouth salty halo. "Qin Shao, let them go. This must be what star wants." Qingqing sniffed and said. She moved her mouth and wanted to say to Qin Shao: let yourself go. But she didn''t have the courage. In this world, there is only one star who can speak and offer conditions in front of Qin Shao unscrupulously. "Some of them said, I don''t want star..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice came softly, especially astringent in the empty corridor. "Star heard!" "..." Qingqing kept her mouth open and closed, and her face was unbelievable. Looking at Shi Shaoqin''s back, she saw the man who had gone through clouds and rain. Her body was shrouded in helpless sadness. "Why don''t I want him? How can I be willing? He''s so good..." Shi Shaoqin glanced back slightly with self mockery in his voice, "I just can''t bear his injury... Even if he will forget today''s injury tomorrow!" He laughed at himself, took back his sight, and without saying anything, lifted his feet and left Finally, those who were to be punished trembled all night and found that nothing had happened in the end. But only Qingqing knew that her sentence "star doesn''t want to" was taken back by qinshao. the second day. Mo palace is still a sunny day. Xi Cheng and morsi spent one night in the pharmaceutical room. According to the current situation of star, they studied several schemes, but in the end, there was no compromise. Xi Cheng was a little crazy and rolled his hair. One night, he thought he was going crazy. "You say you can''t draw amniotic fluid from other pregnant women?" Xi Cheng looked at morsi in despair, expecting him to give some hope, "do you have to have the mother?" Chapter 1154 Mursi''s sad face. After one night, he had learned from Xi Cheng what star meant to Qin Shao now. If there''s a chance, isn''t he looking for death? "Because it''s the medicine brought out by the mother, you know very well that the mother''s medicine is the safest and most effective." Morsi lay weakly on his chair, his eyes looking at the ceiling and his head was dizzy. "There are other uncertain factors that are difficult to control. What will happen?" Xi Cheng was silent. If you have to the mother, you can only leave the option to Jian mo. With such an answer, Xi Cheng suddenly felt a little powerless. Those close to Qin Shao grew up watching Star and suddenly wanted to send him away. It was a rare softness in everyone''s heart. ¡­¡­ After star wakes up, he looks at Shi Shaoqin''s strangeness again. Different from yesterday, I will soon remember that today''s time is obviously much longer It''s strange to say that star''s memory damage is becoming more and more serious, but unfortunately, he is more and more dependent on Shi Shaoqin. Almost, it has reached the point of unwilling to leave for a moment. For a while, Shi Shaoqin went to deal with things and didn''t come back for an hour. Star was obviously restless. Even, no one was allowed to touch him, and he became very angry. When he saw Shi Shaoqin, the little guy put down his guard and put his arms around Shi Shaoqin''s neck, but he didn''t want to let go. Such dependence falls into the eyes of the public, and I don''t know whether it''s good or bad However, everyone''s heart became heavier and heavier. "When are you going to leave?" Shi juechi looked at Star taking a nap and his voice was a little dignified. "He''ll leave when he wakes up..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice sounded very calm. Shi juechi frowned slightly. "It hasn''t reached that point yet. Do you want to... Wait another two days to see if there is a breakthrough between morsi and Xi City?" "No," Shi Shaoqin gently stroked star''s face with his fingers. "Although he will forget me now because of his lack of memory, it is obvious that he will have a stronger dependence on me..." After a pause, Shi Shaoqin collected the bitterness from the bottom of his eyes. "I don''t want him to be sad..." Since he wants to leave, at least don''t let star be too sad. That''s all he can do. If he doesn''t give up, just bear it. But he can''t see star''s sadness Shi Jue Chi sighed without persuasion. Since you want to separate, it''s also good to cut the mess quickly. The plane took off from the Mo palace apron. It''s not the first time for star to fly, but it''s the first time he''s been quiet. Children''s hearts are sometimes the most sensitive. They don''t need to say anything or make it clear. They seem to be able to feel it. The plane landed in Los Angeles at 5 p.m. The person in charge of Mo palace in Los Angeles came to pick it up and went directly to the villa in crescent lake. The autumn sunset falls on the outskirts and reflects on the lake. It has a unique taste. Although star is not as lively as before, he is still with Shi Shaoqin in the new environment. Obviously, the little guy is still very happy. "Beautiful." Star pointed to the crescent Lake in front of the villa and smiled. He is very good-looking. If he doesn''t distinguish from his clothes, now star can''t tell whether it''s a boy or a girl. At the moment, he stood a little by the lake, and the sunset shrouded him. It was very beautiful. Shi Shaoqin took a picture of star with a camera. Almost every time he went to a new place, he would take a picture of star, write down some feelings at that time and put it in the album Just like before, he still had a home. His mother and father would take pictures of him and Jue Chi and then record them. "Does star like this place very much?" Shi Shaoqin squatted down in front of star and asked softly. Star smiled and nodded. Shi Shaoqin stroked star''s small head with his big palm. His long narrow eyes looked at him quietly. After a while, he slowly said, "just like it..." he smiled at the corners of his mouth, even if it was astringent, "Los Angeles, but star''s home!" Star looked at Shi Shaoqin suspiciously. Obviously, he didn''t understand his words. "What''s the matter?" Shi Shaoqin felt that star''s mood suddenly vented and frowned slightly. Star leaned forward, his small arm around Shi Shaoqin''s neck, and said in a stuffy voice, "home, stone!" In short, Shi Shaoqin''s nose suddenly became sour, and even his eyes were stung by his soft heart, which filled with moisture How much Shi Shaoqin wants to accept star''s words, but he can''t now. "Let''s have dinner first," Shi Shaoqin said softly. "When you''re finished, stone will show you around, huh?" "OK." Star nodded. Shi Shaoqin took star''s hand and went back to the villa. There are no servants here, only Qingqing who follows. The ingredients were prepared in advance by the Mogong people in Los Angeles. Qingqing starts, and Shi Shaoqin prepares dinner for star himself. Of course, the little guy is only responsible for sabotage. A very simple dinner, three dishes and one soup, and star''s favorite risotto. Shi Shaoqin''s level is not as good as that of a cook, but he does it with a model At least, the little guy was very supportive and ate a lot. Qingqing looked at the scene, which was very warm. She even saw the scene many times, but today, her sad tears were almost uncontrollable. She really wants to ask, is there no other way? Although I know clearly that now I can only give Jian mo the right of choice, there is no other way. The crescent moon has quietly climbed up the willow head, and the loose cloth of the stars is in the ink sky. The night breeze in the suburbs was a little cool. Shi Shaoqin put a coat on star before holding him and walking around Xu Shi wants to return star to Gu Beichen and Jian Mo anyway. Shi Shaoqin is not only reluctant and sad, but also relaxed and afraid of being found. "Stone, will you leave star?" Star was listening to Shi Shaoqin''s story. He didn''t know what he thought, and suddenly asked. Shi Shaoqin stopped and looked into star''s clear eyes. After a while, he said, "how can I be willing?" It''s another answer that confuses my thoughts, and little star can''t tell at all. Just smiled and stretched out his little hand, "pull the hook." Shi Shaoqin''s heart has been twisted "Stone!" When star saw that Shi Shaoqin didn''t move, he was dissatisfied and handed his little hand forward. Shi Shaoqin was in a dignified mood. To the end, he stretched out his hand and pulled a hook with star ¡­¡­ J brought out the freshly cut fruit from the kitchen with a cup of freshly squeezed strange juice in his hand. After Jane Mo sat down on the sofa, J put the juice in front of her and took the fruit to the table. While playing games, he ate the fruit. I don''t know if it''s influenced by Jane mo. Jane Jie likes to be at the table when she does her homework. Now she has a j and likes to occupy the table. It made Gu Beichen cry and laugh and said whether he wanted to put more tables at home. "There will be a meeting tomorrow morning," Gu Beichen hung up the phone and looked at Jian Mo and said, "you go to the company with me tomorrow morning. After the meeting, I''ll go to the production inspection with you." Xiao Jing takes Zhao Qianyu on a business trip. Tomorrow''s meeting is very important. Jian Mo is clear. "I can go by myself..." said Jane mo. "I don''t have class tomorrow morning..." J said with an apple in his mouth. "I''ll go with Jane mo. just come over there." "Just go with me." Jane Mo said with a smile, "besides, go to Yunze. What are you worried about?" Chapter 1155 Gu Beichen gave a deep thought to Shang Jianmo''s sight and nodded in the end. I don''t know whether it''s because of Xiao Yan or because he didn''t accompany Xiao Jie, which made him learn the guilt of being independent from an early age. During her pregnancy, Jane almost didn''t care if she had a little way to leave Beichen. Even, because Jian Mo was pregnant, some designs that originally needed bidding were given to Xiangyu for favoritism according to Xiao Jing''s words. Just because I don''t want to deprive Mo''er of her work enthusiasm, and I don''t want her to run around because of her design Of course, although Yu Ziyun will not let a pregnant woman work. Jian Mo drank the juice and asked carelessly, "at that time, I heard Shaochen say that Yu would go home with Chen this morning?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered and suddenly dropped his eyes and smiled, "go back to Chen Yu''s house first." "Anyway, if he can settle down and marry a wife, my aunt has nothing to ask for..." Jian Mo also smiled. "Naturally, I have to deal with my father-in-law and mother-in-law first." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered again. Mo Tong looked at Jane Mo with a smile and joked, "in this regard, I''m more relaxed than him." Jane Mo was stunned and then ''poo poo'' laughed. She knows. Last time at the emperor''s club, her Gu was choked by Ye Chenyu''s goods Think of Gu, the general manager of her family. She has always been black in the stomach and often chokes to death in three or two sentences. She wants to laugh because she was choked by her friends because of some silly things in the past. Well, it''s her fault to entertain her boss! "Jane Moke also has a mother''s family..." J said coldly while playing games. "I am!" With that, he glanced provocatively at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen smiled and shook his head. Obviously, he didn''t pay attention to j at all In his eyes, j is a child. A strange creature raised by Shi Shaoqin in the Mo palace because of his nature and genius. When J saw Gu Beichen''s attitude, he suddenly blew his hair. ''Teng'' stood up and said, "Gu Beichen, you look down on Jane Mo''s family!" Gu Beichen smiled but said nothing. Some of J wanted to jump and gnash his teeth, so he said, "Jane Mo''s family is me, but behind me, don''t forget, there''s Qin Shao!" This guy was originally very angry, but after talking about Shi Shaoqin, he saw Gu Beichen''s face turn black immediately and picked his chin proudly. With a puff, Jane Mo couldn''t help laughing again. If there are any "weaknesses" in her family now, it is definitely four and a half years and Shi Shaoqin. "Aren''t you helping Zhan seize the city?" Gu Beichen suddenly said something. J suddenly widened his eyes, scolded "lean" in his mouth, and hurried to sit down and look at the computer However, because of the "quarrel" with Gu Beichen, his main attack stopped, the city was not captured, and he was killed by the other party! J squeaked and screamed for a while. While complaining that it was Gu Beichen, he was watching who killed him. Jane Mo looked at the same "struggle" as a child when she was a big boy and shook her head. Although very helpless, but feel very happy. Mr. Gu is not the indifferent Mr. Gu outside. At home, he has no identity to treat his family "You seem to know his game very well?" Jane Mo is a little curious. "I played for a while when I graduated from junior high school..." Jane Mo''s eyes widened, some unbelievable. Gu Beichen couldn''t laugh or cry. "When I went to school, I also had entertainment." Jane can''t imagine what it''s like to sit in front of the computer and concentrate on playing games. After all, it''s a little hard to imagine. "What game did you play then and still play now?" Jane Mo was surprised. "This game is strong enough." "Longteng has been developed for many years now..." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo''s mobile phone on the tea table. "It''s from the same company as the zl9 you''re using now." After a pause, he said, "well, it belongs to the Dragon Empire, but it operates completely independently and is responsible for its own profits and losses." Jane Mo was surprised. ZL''s mobile phone is a legend in Android. Limited edition machines are hard to buy with money. Even if they are suitable for all classes, they are definitely sought after by the public. The reason is very simple. In addition to the strong system, it has many easy-to-use small software and games, which are developed exclusively and built-in. Of course, these are digressions, which will only recall some people''s memories of the dragon and Phoenix twins of the dragon family ¡­¡­ In Chen''s villa, the atmosphere is dignified under the stalemate. Chen Feng heard that Chen Yu was going to bring his brother-in-law back to see his parents, and even his little girlfriend broke up. "Tut Tut, this look kills..." Chen Feng approached Xie Zhenru slightly and whispered, "according to my observation, my brother-in-law has no fear because of the support of his sister. My father''s blood strip is about to be emptied because he wants to lose his daughter..." "..." Xie Zhenru stared angrily for fear of her son whose current situation was not chaotic enough. Chen zhenzui smiled silently, and then Xie zhenzui continued to watch. "What makes you think I''ll agree to give you my daughter?" Chen Qishan gnashed his teeth. Ye Chenyu was calm, "because your daughter is not married to me!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Qishan choked on Ye Chenyu''s words and was about to have a stroke. Chen Yu also twitched at the corners of her mouth. Although she thought what ye Chenyu said was true, shouldn''t she be more gentle today and please her future father-in-law? Xie Zhenru was secretly worried that the war would break out. The only happy thing is Chen Feng. He likes this brother-in-law. His momentum first trumps Lao Chen! "I disagree. Do you think she can marry?" Chen Qishan gritted his teeth and said angrily. "Oh..." Ye Chenyu lowered his eyes slightly, but in a moment he raised his eyes to Chen Qishan, "if you don''t agree, I have only one way." Chen Qishan frowned. Xie Zhenru felt a little uneasy. Chen Feng looked curious Only Chen Yu quietly pulled down Ye Chenyu''s sleeve and asked him to be gentle. Unfortunately "If I can''t, I''ll abduct your daughter and elope." Chen Feng almost laughed with a puff. Fortunately, he restrained himself. "You dare!" "I really dare..." Ye Chenyu looked innocent. Chen Qishan was so angry that he suddenly stood up. Because he exerted too much force, the chairs were overturned. "Ye Chenyu, if you dare to abduct my daughter, I will sue you to go to jail..." Chen Qishan estimated that he was really mad and completely lost his mind. Ye Chenyu raised his curious eyes and asked Chen Qishan again, "tell me what?" "Abduction!" The words overflowed, and the corners of Chen''s mouth twitched Chen Feng has already held back his smile and is about to suffer internal injury. Even Xie Zhenru wanted to say, how did her old Chen become so childish?! Chapter 1156 Ye Chenyu didn''t laugh, even a little sarcasm or similar emotions. He said very seriously: "uncle, Chen Yu has grown up and has his own independent thought. At the same time, he doesn''t need a guardian..." After a pause, ye Chenyu continued: "moreover, she has no neurological diseases. Therefore, she has independent control over her behavior... I can''t constitute the crime of human abduction!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Of course, Chen Qishan knows, but just on impulse, his brain is on the axis. "Dad, are you talking about law with two policemen?" Chen Feng couldn''t hold back, "I love you very much..." "Get out!" Chen Qishan is furious and sends his anger to Chen Feng. Chen Feng doesn''t mind at all. In other people''s homes, parents love one child and are strict with another child. Generally, they will have their own thoughts. But Chen Feng didn''t On the contrary, sometimes I feel that my father is too nervous and my sister is half angry. Some ask for it Oh, he is so unfilial! Chen Feng despised himself, but quietly compared with Ye Chenyu. The atmosphere is deadlocked again. Chen Shuo''s lips, beautiful eyes, are completely helpless. Ye Chenyu is a proud man. He has his pride. Dad is also a person who won''t compromise. They have been full of smoke since the first sentence... How can we talk about it. "Xiaoyu, you go out with me..." Xie Zhenru suddenly said, "Xiaofeng, you push me!" "Ah?!" As soon as Chen Feng heard this, he was not happy. He really wanted to stay to see the battle. Xie Zhenru gave him a warning look. Chen Feng angrily "Oh" and got up to push his mother. In the living room of such a large villa, after Chen Yu and them went out, only Ye Chenyu and Chen Qishan were left. The atmosphere was not relaxed at all, even more dignified. Chen Qishan stood and ye Chenyu sat. They looked up and down, but none of them lost the slightest momentum. "Uncle," Ye Chenyu said with a serious look, "you object, just because you don''t want to give your baby daughter to me, who has no great future, but have you ever thought that economy is just life, not spirit?" Chen Qishan''s mouth moved back and forth, trying to refute, but he felt that he could not refute. He sat down slowly and snorted coldly. "What Chen Yu needs is not material. What she needs is someone who can give her the support and warmth she wants..." Ye Chenyu said. "There is no need for two strong people at home. Complementation is the circle of life." Chen Qishan still snorted coldly. Ye Chenyu didn''t mind, "because when she was a child, she had a different obsession with the police... Both of them were in danger, so this home is not home!" "Do you want to tell me that you gave up your career for Chen Yu?" Chen Qishan sneered. Ye Chenyu just smiled lightly and showed a trace of evil cunning. "Many people choose to be a policeman because it is an iron rice bowl... But Chen Yu and I are not." Chen Yu is because of the turning point in his childhood. He is because he really loves it. "Hum," Chen Qishan snorted coldly, "whether you are a policeman or a private detective, what can you give my daughter? Spirit? That''s a beautiful fantasy when you''re in love... When there''s only fuel, rice, oil and salt left in life, what time do you have to enjoy the spirit? Spirit is enjoyed without lack of material conditions!" Ye Chenyu did not refute. "What can you afford to eat, use and wear?" Chen Qishan gritted his teeth, and even the breath that had just been pressed down rose again. Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Qishan quietly and said that he didn''t feel insulted at all, but felt a little astringent. Is this a father''s worry and love for his children? If my father is still there, is it a confrontation between two fathers today?! Stick to their own words and think their children are good? Thinking, Chen Qishan has said a lot "How does uncle know that these material comforts can make Chen become suspicious of life after marriage?" Ye Chenyu finally asked. "I really don''t know," Chen Qishan sneered, "but I won''t and won''t use my daughter''s life to verify it!" "It seems that we can''t agree today!" Ye Chenyu was helpless. Chen Qishan said coldly, "it''s impossible to talk about it in the future..." A man of arrogant character, if he wants to marry his fine daughter, don''t even think about it. At the thought of Ye Chenyu''s attitude on the first phone call, Chen Qishan gave Ye Chenyu another type. Ye Chenyu sighed, "I can''t talk about it today, so I have to leave first." He stood up, looked at Chen Qishan and said, "in fact, I don''t want to finish it today, just come and talk about the wind first..." "..." Chen Qishan twitched at the corners of his mouth and felt an old gush of blood. When Chen Yu sent Ye Chenyu away, there was some silence along the way. Chen Yu pulled over just as he was approaching Ye Chenyu''s apartment. "Can''t you be softer to Lao Chen?" Ye Chenyu''s arms supported the seat, his body tilted, his vision was evil, and he looked at Chen Yu with a ruffian smile in his mouth. "Tut Tut, are you worried that you can''t marry me?" Chen Yu glared at Ye Chenyu, "if Lao Chen really doesn''t agree, I''m very embarrassed!" Ye Chenyu touched Chen''s head. Just when Chen was angry and wanted to make him more serious, he fished her and kissed her on her lips "The day we get married is set for one day with Shaochen and them, okay?" Ye Chenyu asked. Chen Yu was a little confused, but he immediately reacted, "when you finish Lao Chen, let''s talk about this again!" "In fact, I''m in a hurry..." Ye Chenyu said, "they decided next month. Why don''t we prepare the early things first?" Chen Yu frowned and felt that he and ye Chenyu were talking at the same time. Looking at Chen Chen''s angry look, ye Chenyu''s eyes were deep and tore at her mouth for a while Chen Yu''s breath is a little messy. In front of Ye Chenyu, she finds that her IQ is getting more and more offline. If you are provoked by him, you won''t know the southeast and northwest. "Don''t worry, your old Chen, I''ve touched the bottom today, and I''ll win it in one fell swoop next time!" Ye Chenyu smiled and rubbed Chen Yu''s head. "Tell me now, will you marry me so soon?" Chen Yu''s eyes on Shang Ye Chenyu. At that moment, she felt her heart beat faster and didn''t know how to speak. "Are you proposing?" Ye Chenyu''s smile deepened at the corners of his mouth, and his eyes were filled with evil spirit. Chen Shu lowered his eyes and muttered in his voice, "it''s too casual..." Suddenly Under the faint light in the car, a ring appeared in front of Chen. The design of the ring is very simple, but it is full of the atmosphere of famous artists. Chen Yu suddenly raised his eyes and looked at Ye Chenyu "In this way, is it more sincere?" Ye Chenyu asked with a smile. Chen Chen''s breath began to be unstable. She looked at Ye Chenyu and her eyes suddenly got wet. "Chen Chen, take my surname and crown your name..." Ye Chenyu deeply coagulated Chen Chen, "it''s not just talk." Tears fell out of control. "Will you?" Ye Chenyu asked with a smile. Chen Yu sniffed and asked in a choking voice, "I''d like to." After that, she seemed to think of something, "but I''m so easy to chase, will you not cherish it in the future?" Chapter 1157 "..." Ye Chenyu smiled helplessly. He spoiled Chen Yu and sighed, "little girl!" "Uncle!" Chen Yu snorted, unwilling to show weakness. Ye Chenyu was stunned, shook his head, pulled Chen Yu''s hand and put the ring on her middle finger. "Don''t worry, my uncle will always be good to the little girl..." Ye Chenyu looked up at Chen Yu slightly, obviously with a narrow smile in his eyes. "After all, it''s not easy for my uncle to cheat a wife." Hearing what he said, Chen Yu immediately laughed, and even the tears on his face were full of happiness. They are not hypocritical people, like to be together, love is a lifetime Looking at the ring on her hand, Chen Yu''s happy whole body cells are like honey. "Eh?!" Chen Yu suddenly wondered, "this is Lin''s high-end customized ring, which can only be ordered once in a lifetime?" With that, she looked at Ye Chenyu and waited to solve her doubts. "Yes." Ye Chenyu answered. "Ye Chenyu, this customization is so expensive that it''s frightening. Won''t all your money be used to buy rings?" Chen Yu''s eyes widened. "Do you still have the money to marry me?" "..." Ye Chenyu twitched at the corners of his mouth. He could see such a lovely expression and laughed again. "All the money is used to buy rings. That''s why I said that our wedding was with Shaochen and them. In this way... They all spent their money." Chen Yu thought, "what a good idea!" "Do you mind?" Ye Chenyu asked casually. Chen Yu stared at Ye Chenyu, "what do you mind?" "I don''t even have money for your wedding..." Ye Chenyu said with an evil smile. Chen Yu chuckled, "it''s all right. At least you can rub it!" "If you are like this, I will take it for granted..." Ye Chenyu sighed, but full of doting. Chen Chen looked at Ye Chenyu and smiled, "this palace allows you to take it for granted!" Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu''s line of sight, deeper and deeper Until, he kissed Chen Yu''s lips again and absorbed the beauty of her mouth. Nothing is more exciting than a woman who wants to be with you fearlessly. His little girl, just be silly in front of him! It''s just that such a kiss, such an environment, and a proposal The space is filled with ambiguous atmosphere in an instant, which makes people nervous. Breathing heavier and heavier, kissing deeper and deeper, more and more lingering Chen Yu only felt that his body became soft under this kiss. Ye Chenyu felt that he was tossing himself. He only felt that the position three inches below his lower abdomen was not good enough to start restless. No way, he''s stupid, but he hasn''t seriously touched a woman. In the past, undercover couldn''t do anything because of the task. Later Then it was a task, no chance! It''s hard, brother. It''s a problem that brother doesn''t protest at the moment. Ye Chenyu let go of Chen Yu and looked at her eyes, which had been stained with fire. If he wasn''t on the side of the main road at the moment, ye Chenyu thought that in fact, the car was also very interesting. Chen Yu inadvertently glanced at the important part of Ye Chenyu, and her restless state made her face redder. When a person is embarrassed, his brain will be congested. Under such circumstances, you will generally do something stupid or out of your control, which is not your usual behavior "It''s not raining outside. What umbrella do you hold?" Chen Yu said that he was stupid and ye Chenyu was stunned! "Teng" looked at Ye Chenyu and his face turned red at once. She... Seems a little dirty?! The more he thought about it, the more he felt that he was really crazy. However, her words were full of teasing, coupled with the shy look at the moment, it was impossible for men to torture. "Meat first!" Ye Chenyu gritted his teeth and his voice was hoarse. He felt that if he could bear it now, it would be waste Well, I don''t know. I can''t bear it too much. It''s useless there. At this moment, he already felt the pain! This marriage has been proposed and will be recognized together in the future. What''s more, Chen Yu is not an old-fashioned thought. He says he wants to stay on his wedding night. In addition, if people''s feelings rise to a place, it''s natural to do that, of course. Just do it! I don''t know whether the LORD did it on purpose or a fucking coincidence. Next to Chen Yu''s parking, there is a hotel. Open a room and enter The two kissed each other. The clothes were messy on the ground. When ye Chenyu pressed Chen Yu to fall on the bed, they were basically half naked. Dry firewood and fire. When things are dry in the sky, it will start at one point. There is no need for anything to assist. When the delicate roses dye the white sheets red, when they are completely promoted from a girl to a woman, they bloom brilliantly in the arms of men Chen Yu knows that in this life, this man is hers! Sweet with the original bath look filled the room. The men and women who first tasted the forbidden fruit, one opened the gate to discharge the flood, and the other accepted all rivers... Wrote their love fairy tales. However, the men and women fighting in the hotel room forgot the cars parked on the roadside. A traffic policeman stopped by the car and turned around. Finally, he called the trailer directly and dragged the car away and detained it. The car was towed away, and there was follow-up development. After all, there is only one Chen who can afford to drive millions of sports cars in the police station and dare to drive them openly. Naturally, many people still know what her car is and what the license plate is. When we heard that the car was impounded on the road next to the hotel, there was a heated discussion on the matter. One is that law enforcement officers occupied the road to park in places where they could only temporarily Park, and Chen was criticized. The other is extended Well, why park by the side of the hotel?! Obviously, I can''t stand it. I just play with fire and go to the hotel to solve it. Chen Yu is actually a woman. She is taken out from time to time to make fun of her. She wants to poke her ears and pretend to be deaf. It''s Ye Chenyu, my woman. What''s the matter with you?! The night is getting drunk. Chen Qishan originally wanted to educate his daughter when she came back But those who wait left and right can''t wait for their daughter. "Dad, why don''t I call my sister?" Chen Feng, fearing that the old Chen gas is not enough, deliberately asks with a playful smile. "Go, go back to your school!" Chen Qishan said angrily. Chen Feng grinned, "Dad, you''re too unkind. I won''t stay for one night when I come back. You don''t want to see me so much?" Chen Qishan severely gouged out Chen Feng and didn''t bother to pay attention to him. He looked at the time again. Two hours had passed "Smelly girl, is this deliberately against me?!" After gritting his teeth, Chen Qishan got up angrily and went upstairs. He was still muttering. He didn''t know what he was talking to himself. Chen Feng looked at Chen Qishan''s angry back and smiled. Finally, when he opened the door of the room, he couldn''t help laughing He said, Lao Chen''s family, there is only one Chen who can make Lao Chen so angry. There was a bang, and the door closed with anger. Chen Qishan was furious, but what he didn''t expect was that ye Chenyu had robbed the highlands and occupied the territory of Chen Yu. If you know, I''m afraid you can surge up and faint directly. Because he really can''t imagine that his high spirited daughter can be handled so easily Chapter 1158 the second day. The autumn sunshine penetrates the clouds lazily and falls quietly on the earth. The autumn in Los Angeles is still very comfortable. As long as it doesn''t change, it can be said to be the most comfortable time of the year Shi Shaoqin personally cooked breakfast for star, which he liked to eat, and set a full table. When star woke up, his eyes were full of strangeness to the world. Children''s memory is limited. When everything is "erased", there is nothing in their eyes except instinctive hesitation. Qingqing wants to dress star. The little guy holds his mouth tightly, and the resistance on his face doesn''t leak. Qingqing is very sad and more distressed. "I''ll come!" Shi Shaoqin came in from the outside and took the clothes in Qingqing''s hand. "I am stone, you are star..." Such a dialogue has become what Shi Shaoqin must say after star wakes up these two days. The introduction over and over again did not make him feel bored. He just felt that it was always good to be able to introduce. Star looked at Shi Shaoqin and blinked slightly, but there was a sense of strangeness in the bottom of his eyes. However, Shi Shaoqin dressed him, but he didn''t resist. "After breakfast, I''ll take you around..." Shi Shaoqin said, pausing, and his eyes crossed the sadness uncontrollably. "If there''s no accident, I''ll take you around the city." Star is not excited. His strangeness to the world makes him lose the fun of exploration. Black bright eyes looked at Shi Shaoqin without blinking. The little guy seemed to be thinking about something. Just as Shi Shaoqin was putting on his coat for star, he suddenly leaned forward and put his small arm around Shi Shaoqin''s neck. "What''s the matter, huh?" Shi Shaoqin''s smile was a little stiff, but his voice was always gentle and could not hear the superfluous emotion, "don''t want to go out?" "Wow -" Without warning, or even any time for Qingqing and Shi Shaoqin to react, star opened his mouth and began to cry. Such a cry, no matter why, suddenly hurt Qingqing and Shi Shaoqin''s heart. Qingqing''s nose was so sour and astringent that her eyes turned red and her eyes were filled with mist Shi Shaoqin didn''t move with star in his arms and kept squatting and kneeling. Star''s small arm tightened again for a few minutes, sobbing. There were tears all over his beautiful little face. He looked very pitiful. Shi Shaoqin moved his mouth several times to comfort star, but he found that he couldn''t even comfort himself at the moment. "Wuwu..." Star''s small hands folded tightly together, the cry became more and more choked, and his small body twitched because of crying. "Stop crying, will you?" Shi Shaoqin looked ahead with a soft voice, but could not hide his inner vulnerability. Star''s inexplicable dependence left him with nothing to deal with. "Wuwu..." Star seemed unable to listen to anything. He hugged Shi Shaoqin and kept crying, crying That is the dependence from childhood, and that is also the natural sensitivity of children. He seemed to feel the sadness of parting. The small hands holding Shi Shaoqin''s neck and tightly clenched together revealed his subconscious dependence No one said anything, even star forgot something But these are not enough to reduce his dependence from childhood by half. Even, because of the sensitive small heart, it will only expand this uneasy dependence to the maximum. Star''s crying broke down, and Qingqing had already been unable to cry, and even forgot Shi Shaoqin''s explanation. "Qin Shao, can''t you not send star away?" Qingqing choked and asked, "he obviously depends on you so much, and you obviously need him so much!" Shi Shaoqin frowned and looked at Qingqing with anger and warning in his eyes. Star also raised his small face and looked at Qingqing with blurred tears. The original uneasiness collapsed completely under Qingqing''s words. Children''s hearts are the most soft and fragile. A word to send him away made star cry heartbroken It''s like, the closest person, don''t want him! With this understanding, star''s neck around Shi Shaoqin is tighter. If the child''s strength is not limited, I''m afraid he can kill Shi Shaoqin "No, no!" Star cried as he spoke. The voice and choking tone changed. Qingqing ignored Shi Shaoqin''s warning at the moment. She only knew that star was very sad at the moment. Even if no one said anything, he had sensed something. After all, star is such a clever boy. The loss of memory is not the loss of his IQ. Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth again and again. When star said "no", he wanted to say: Stone won''t send him away. Stone will always accompany him. However, he doesn''t want to cheat star for such a lie. The crying didn''t stop. Shi Shaoqin just hugged star and let star hug him tightly Sorrow always comes. No matter how much star depends on him, when he returns to his parents, he will forget his dependence sooner or later Oh! What a cruel truth?! But he can only be cruel After all, he has always been a cruel man and never lived in the sun! ¡­¡­ J drove Jian Mo to Huakang hospital. Because the car is Jane Mo, or pregnant Jane mo. J''s driving is not as usual, full of young hormone mania, but very smooth. At the hospital, Dr. GE has been waiting. Seeing Jane Mo coming, they entered the examination room. J waited outside alone. Bored, he waited outside the inspection room and looked around Suddenly, a familiar figure came out of a gynecological operating room not far away with a checklist in his hand and a face like a thief. J is quite familiar with Huakang''s gynecology. After all, he came with Jane Mo several times. Looked at the door of the examination room where Jane Mo entered, and then followed the familiar figure. When I saw her pay for the medicine, I went to get it again. From beginning to end, I looked at her from left to right. I looked guilty and afraid of being found. "Hello!" "Ah!" J deliberately blocked the girl. Obviously, the girl screamed because she was guilty of being a thief. When she saw that it was j, her eyes overflowed with panic. At the same time, she subconsciously pinned the medicine in her hand behind her. "What are you doing here?" J asked. The girl''s eyes twinkled. "I, I''m sick. I''ll prescribe some medicine!" J sneered, "what disease?" "I want you to take care of it!" J sneered again, "you just seem to have come out of a minor gynecological operation..." Hearing him say this, the girl instantly turned pale, "you, you, you..." Even after saying a few words about you, the girl didn''t follow. She just looked frightened and worried. J is not a fool. That operating room is used for induced abortion. He knows very well. At the thought of this, J looked at the girl''s eyes and became indifferent "You are so good!" J said a word coldly, then turned coldly and left. The girl clung to the medicine with her hand on her back. Looking at J, her eyes were red and she bit her lips. Her face was going to cry. It was completely wronged. J returned to the examination room with a cold face and leaned against the wall with his arms around his chest. His whole face was full of irritability. He glanced sideways at the operating room at the other end of the corridor and then looked back coldly. It''s just that irritability spreads directly from the fundus of the eyes The corridor was full of strange smell, and the inspection room was filled with dignity. "Don''t worry too much if the fetal position is not right," Dr. Ge said comfortingly, looking at Jane''s worried lips. "I''ll teach you some movements later. Go back and practice and see if you can come right..." Chapter 1159 If the fetal position is not correct, Jane Mo said that it is false if she doesn''t worry. When Huai Jianjie was born, although she was the first child, she was born with a smooth journey under the care of Jun Li because she was a little inconvenient to study outside But after Xiaoyan, she said she was not nervous about her birth and couldn''t deceive herself. Dr. GE has been the exclusive fetal examination doctor of Jian Mo since he was a child of Yan. Looking at her worry, she smiled and comforted: "it''s more difficult to be under pressure than incorrect fetal position..." "..." Jian Mo smiled awkwardly, "yes, yes, the mood should be happy, and the child will feel the mother and strong." "Yes." Dr. Ge took the instrument, helped Jane Mo out of the examination bed and said some actions to do when he went back. Jane Mo remembered very carefully. When she arrived, she asked anxiously, "if you insist on doing it, will you come right over?" Dr. Ge smiled helplessly, "don''t worry, it''s not a big problem... At most, you can''t have a natural birth, you have to have a caesarean section." Jane Mo listened and breathed out. Out of the examination room, Jane Mo saw J drooping his eyes and looking at his toes. She didn''t know what she was thinking? Slightly puzzled frowned, and Jane Mo came forward, "what are you thinking? I don''t know when I come out..." J suddenly recovered, looked at Jane Mo and shook his head. Jane Mo looked at J and thought something was wrong with him. But who doesn''t have a bit of a mess? She didn''t ask. J doesn''t know whether it''s because he has been with Jian Mo for more than two years or because he has been in contact with the crowd at school. Now he is obviously more cheerful and sophisticated than in Mo palace. He asked Dr. GE''s examination results attentively, and then walked out of the hospital with Jane mo Because the inspection was fast, Gu Beichen''s meeting was not finished. Jian Mo directly sent him a text message, saying that he would go to xiaxiangyu with J, and then have dinner with the emperor at noon. With J around, Gu Beichen can rest assured. Although he is a big boy, he can handle the basic alertness and some small accidents of the people who followed Shi Shaoqin before. The meeting lasted nearly another hour before it was over. The emperor and the Dragon empire will cooperate to build an Expo Park in Los Angeles. Today''s integration meeting is the last one to be exposed "President Gu, happy cooperation." The person in charge of dragon Empire real estate. Gu Beichen shook hands with him and nodded with a smile, "happy cooperation!" "I heard that President Gu had minor in architectural design during his study in the UK?" The person in charge of the Dragon Empire asked. Gu Beichen smiled but didn''t speak, waiting for him to continue. The person in charge of the Dragon Empire smiled. "Your wife is also engaged in architectural design. I think if Gu is willing to do it this time, it should be worth paying attention to." "I''m afraid I''m going to disappoint Mr. long!" Gu Beichen didn''t talk about each other, but mentioned long Ziyi, President of the Dragon empire Obviously, he knows whose proposal this is. The person in charge of the Dragon Empire picked his eyebrows, which was not too unexpected. Gu Beichen guessed and just said, "what a pity." "A home is my gift to my wife... It''s also the last design in my hand." Gu Beichen looked unchanged. "I think Mr. long should be able to understand my attachment to my lover." "If Gu Zong wants, I''ll bring it." The person in charge of the Dragon Empire nodded and then left with people. Gu Beichen watched the people of the Dragon Empire leave, turned to the office and dialed Li Yunze''s phone Li Yunze has just had an operation and his face is tired. When the mobile phone vibrated on the table, he rubbed the center of his eyebrows and picked it up. Without looking at the call, he could guess who was calling at the moment. "I said, didn''t your wife report the examination results directly to you?" Li Yunze''s breath was weak. "She only picked the good ones and said." Gu Beichen spoke indifferently. "Wouldn''t it be better for you to call Dr. Ge directly?" Li Yunze lowered his hand to rub the center of his eyebrows, lay back on the seat and stretched his legs. Gu Beichen pushed open the door of the office and didn''t speak. Li Yunze sighed, "the situation is a little bad." Gu Beichen''s footsteps paused, and the center of his eyebrows coagulated in an instant, "what do you mean?" "Jane Mo''s incorrect fetal position is not a big problem, but we should also pay attention to some things." Li Yunze said, "Dr. Ge didn''t say much to Jane mo." "What needs attention?" Gu Beichen restrained his mind and asked. Li Yunze said the matters needing attention, and finally added, "you should restrain yourself. You can''t do it before production. In addition, Jian Mo can''t work too hard." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered. In due time, the internal telephone in Li Yunze''s office rang. "You''re busy." Gu Beichen said that and hung up. Standing in front of the window and looking at the rows of high-rise buildings in the sun, Gu Beichen gradually sank his eyes. The Expo has been designed by Mo''er for a long time How can we not let her worry and let her pull out?! ¡­¡­ Star''s eyes are red and small, especially pathetic. After crying in the morning, he didn''t say a word. He just flattened his mouth and kept his eyes from Shi Shaoqin for a moment. He moves, his eyes follow. If he doesn''t move, he will look at it Shi Shaoqin held him in his arms, and he put his face on his shoulder. Such a soft, as if he had lost his angry star, made Shi Shaoqin distressed. Qingqing''s eyes were always red. She looked at Shi Shaoqin and stopped talking several times. "Qin Shao, the car is ready." The head of Los Angeles came in and said. "Yes." Shi Shaoqin only answered faintly. Subconsciously, star grabbed Shi Shaoqin''s clothes with his small hand, and his small mouth shriveled again. Shi Shaoqin felt the little guy''s sadness, but he was powerless at this moment After getting on the bus, star was not clever in taking the bus for the first time. He didn''t go to be a children''s seat. He just hugged Shi Shaoqin and didn''t let go. The Los Angeles official looked in the rearview mirror. Sitting in the co pilot''s seat, Qingqing felt that her heart was full of cotton and suffocated. Car, start and drive to Luocheng District Jian Mo will have a production inspection today. Xiao Jing is on a business trip. There will be a meeting between the emperor and the Dragon Empire today. Return star to Jane mo. today is the best time. The car didn''t move very fast in the autumn scenery of Los Angeles. Star is not curious about the outside at all. He just lies on Shi Shaoqin''s shoulder and his beautiful little face is getting tighter and tighter. Eyes blinked gently. Without warning, big tears were squeezed out Star''s small body began to choke and tremble. It''s not like crying in the morning. At this moment, the little guy sobbed like this. After a while, he wet Shi Shaoqin''s shoulder. Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, just a pair of eyes, deeper and deeper. Qingqing looked back and couldn''t stand glancing directly out of the window Just for a moment, tears gushed out like breaking the gate, burning the skin and stinging the heart. "Stone..." Suddenly, star sobbed. Chapter 1160 "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered softly, and his voice was obviously hoarse. Star didn''t continue to talk, but his small face rubbed in Shi Shaoqin''s neck. Shi Shaoqin gradually narrowed his eyes. All the tears on star''s face rubbed against his skin That touch, like a needle, pierced into his heart. However, even if it hurts, he can''t say anything. Star is smart. Even if his memory becomes more and more blurred, it doesn''t affect his mind. The little guy felt it. He... "Don''t" him! Star''s tears grew louder and louder, humming and shouting ''stone''. Shi Shaoqin just answered, but there was no superfluous words. The car was filled with sadness and parting. Until finally, the car stopped downstairs in Xiangyu. The sadness of parting lingered on everyone''s nerves. Star''s hand pulled Shi Shaoqin''s clothes tighter. He raised his head and looked at Shi Shaoqin. His eyes were hazy and pitiful. His small mouth was still flat. Shi Shaoqin closed his eyes and his temples twitched because of forbearance. When I open it again, my eyes are already scarlet "Qing Qing!" "Qin Shao..." Qing Qing answered with a choking voice. Her eyes were red and looked at Shi Shaoqin with tears. "You send star." Shi Shaoqin gritted his teeth. He didn''t dare to look at star''s pitiful appearance, and he didn''t dare to look at star''s begging eyes. He was afraid... Afraid of selfishness, so star grew up again and again under the lack of memory. How can the little guy he cares for have no memory? "Stone..." star sobbed, holding Shi Shaoqin''s clothes with his small hand, "stone..." Shi Shaoqin still doesn''t go to see star, but secretly grits his teeth and wants to put star down. However, the little guy tried his best to nurse, holding Shi Shaoqin''s collar with his small hand, but he didn''t loosen it. Of course, star''s strength can''t be compared with that of an adult, let alone Shi Shaoqin? But because it was Shi Shaoqin, his reluctance and star''s strength restrained him. "Stone..." As Shi Shaoqin tried to pull him away, star began to cry. The head of Los Angeles couldn''t bear to deviate. Qingqing didn''t get out of the car. She just looked at star like this and said in a hoarse voice, "Qin Shao, can you stay for two more days?" Shi Shaoqin''s face was slightly cold. Looking at Qingqing, he said coldly, "send star away!" "Wow -" In a word, it completely made star collapse and cry. He used to hold Shi Shaoqin tightly, but he became crazy... His small body always wanted to rub Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin clenched his teeth and tore star apart. Looking at Qingqing, he opened his mouth: "send him away!" Qingqing silently wiped her tears, nodded and opened the door "Wow..." When star saw Qingqing get off the bus, he became hysterical. He wanted to catch Shi Shaoqin just as crazy, but how could he be "strong" over Shi Shaoqin? Qingqing holds back her tears and pulls star out of the car. The child''s crying voice immediately welcomed the glances of people passing nearby However, we just look at it. We love the beautiful children and don''t know why they are throwing things with their mother. "Star, don''t cry, you''re so sad, Qin Shao!" Qingqing coaxed star in a low voice, and her eyes became more and more red. Star can''t hear anything at the moment. He just keeps trying to get enough cars. The big, unbridled tears welled up from the eyes, and the cry was tearing the heart and lungs. Shi Shaoqin closed his eyes. On his beautiful face, he could clearly feel that the texture was shaking. Qingqing took a deep breath and knew clearly that qinshao was cruel and had no way. What she can do now is to give star to Jian Mo, so that Qin Shao and star won''t be sad face to face But often, some things are so unsatisfactory. Do not want to face-to-face separation, but can not escape this scene. Jian Mo and j walked out of the office building talking and laughing. Hearing the cry of a child, they subconsciously looked over. When Jian Mo saw star, her eyes suddenly brightened and her face was instantly surprised. Before J could react, Jane Mo came to star in a hurry "Jane Mo, slow down!" J was surprised and hurried after him. "Unexpectedly, I''ll meet you here..." Jian Mo said with a smile towards Qingqing, but her eyes have been falling on star. "What''s the matter with star? Crying so sad?" With that, Jane Mo wanted to hold her, completely forgetting that she still had a big stomach. Everything was based on instinct. Star looked at Jane Mo, his eyes completely strange. He just glanced at it and turned away from his face. He looked at Shi Shaoqin''s car with tears. In his tears, he was waiting for begging. However, Shi Shaoqin didn''t get off the bus. Star whimpered and looked at the car. He ignored what Jane Mo said or did. Jane Mo is a little lost in her heart, but it''s normal to think that the child''s memory is not strong. In addition, she is crying and doesn''t want to leave her mother''s arms. "What''s the matter with star..." Jian Mo asked Qingqing. Qingqing opened her mouth and blurted out, "I''m angry with my father..." Jane Mo looked at Star painfully and wanted to hug him. However, the little guy obviously kept looking at the car not far away and didn''t intend to pay attention to her at all. Jian Mo also looked at the car. From the outside, she could only vaguely see someone in the driver''s seat and could not see Shi Shaoqin in the back seat. "Why doesn''t the child''s father come down and coax?" Jane Mo was worried when she listened to star''s cry. Qingqing secretly grinned and lied. She could only use another lie to round it up. "Well... I''m on the phone for business." "Oh..." Jane nodded and took out a paper towel to wipe star. Although star wouldn''t let her hold him at the moment, Jane Mo didn''t refuse to wipe his tears. She just looked at the car with tears. J didn''t look at star. He just looked at the car and frowned. He always feels a little strange, but he can''t say what''s strange The words in Qingqing''s mouth have been beating back and forth for several times. She wants to hand star to Jian Mo and tell him the current situation of star. However, she was distressed by Qin Shao and star. She hesitated for a long time and didn''t say anything serious. Jane Mo didn''t intend to leave. She talked to star and waited for star''s "father" to finish his business. But obviously, no matter what she said, star kept crying, looking at the direction of the car and waiting. Shi Shaoqin tightened his eyebrows and looked at Jian Mo''s pregnancy, as if he thought of her days in Mo palace. He knew that Qingqing had not told Jian Mo yet. From Jian Mo''s expression, he knew. Just when there was a "stalemate" inside and outside the car, the driver''s cell phone rang. He picked up and hung up after listening to the report from the people inside. "Qin Shao," the driver looked back, "Jian Mo went to the hospital for examination today. The fetal position is not correct." Shi Shaoqin took back his eyes outside the car and looked at the driver. His eyes were slightly heavy, "and then?" Chapter 1161 "In this case, if you draw amniotic fluid..." the person in charge of Los Angeles said in a dignified voice. After a pause, he continued: "more than 80% of Jane Mo''s fetus can''t be saved!" He is obviously conservative in saying so. Shi Shaoqin frowned at the person in charge of Los Angeles for a few seconds, then looked ahead through the windshield Star has stopped crying, but his eyes are covered with tears and he looks at the car without blinking. Tears kept falling, and Jane Mo''s whole face was suffering. She comforted star and looked at the direction of the car from time to time. Just as she looked back, star''s small hand moved and the blue agate tied to her hand exposed Jian Mo looked at the Blue Agate Polished by her and Gu Beichen, and was stunned. There was an unspeakable taste in her heart. If Xiao Yan is still alive, he is almost as big. She sighed secretly. Jane Mo felt that she would have different feelings for star because she seemed to see Xiao Yan when she saw him. At this moment, seeing the blue agate she sent him with him all the time, she was incredibly happy. As time goes by, Jane Mo is even angry. What important business can make children cry for so long?! But on second thought, Jane felt a little unreasonable After all, it''s common for children to make trouble. How many children can do milk bags? They don''t look like a child?! Thinking like this, Jian Mo is more distressed about star, coaxing him and comforting him. Qingqing looks at Jian Mo and even forgets that as a "mother", she should coax her children. J always looked at the car and looked at it. He was thinking about something, but he didn''t speak because he wasn''t really sure. "Qin Shao..." the person in charge of Los Angeles said. Shi Shaoqin''s narrow eyes narrowed slightly, and there were complex emotions in the depths of his eyes. To save star, take Mo''er''s blood and amniotic fluid. But now, the fetal position is not correct, resulting in abortion if amniotic fluid is extracted... It is an established fact. Is it, save one, lose one?! Shi Shaoqin''s eyebrows grew tighter and tighter. His heart was like being strangled by a rope. He gradually tightened until he couldn''t breathe. Let her decide whether to have star in her stomach. How cruel will it be to her?! "Let Qingqing bring star back..." Shi Shaoqin said to the end. As soon as the person in charge of Los Angeles heard it, his eyes lit up and nodded hurriedly, "yes!" Just as he spoke, he had opened the door. Qingqing looked over, and Jian Mo and J''s eyes fell on the person in charge of Los Angeles. "Qingqing, let''s go..." the person in charge of Los Angeles didn''t say much. Qingqing was stunned first. She exchanged her eyes with the person in charge of Los Angeles and nodded hurriedly, "well, good!" Star didn''t see the "interaction" between the two people. He just kept staring at the car and tears were flowing. "That..." Qingqing secretly congratulated herself for not saying anything about giving star to Jianmo. "We have something else to do, so we''ll go first." I don''t know if it''s a guilty heart. Qingqing said, holding star, she wanted to get on the bus. "Wait..." Behind him came the voice of Jian Mo, and Qingqing''s back suddenly stiffened. She turned and looked at Jane Mo, beating a drum in her heart. "Well, have you been in Los Angeles lately?" Asked Jane mo. "I''m not sure what you''re thinking right now," said Shi Qing. "I''m not sure what you''re thinking right now." Jane Mo nodded, hurriedly took the business card out of her bag and handed it to Qingqing. "Well, you know, star and I feel very lucky... If you don''t leave, I want to host with my husband." Jane Mo said. Qingqing took it and nodded, "OK!" Jane Mo looked at star and saw that he was still crying. She wiped his tears painfully. "Star, stop crying, huh?" Jane Mo said with a smile, "if you give dad a kiss, Dad''s heart will be soft and he won''t be angry with star." Star fanned his eyes and looked at Jane mo. his tears were still flowing and he didn''t speak. Jane Mo took a deep breath. Although she was not willing to star, she also saw that Qingqing and them were a little worried No longer give up, but also slowly let go of his hand. Suddenly Star leaned towards Jianmo. Just before she reacted, his mouth was covered with tears and kissed Jianmo on the face. Jane Mo was suddenly stunned in place. I don''t know why. Star''s behavior made her feel like fireworks. Jane Mo smiled and kissed star on the face, "aunt will miss you." Star looked at Jane Mo and fanned his eyes. He didn''t speak. "Let''s go first." Qingqing said to star, "star, goodbye to aunt." Star was very clever and waved to Jane mo. Jane Mo smiled and looked at Star reluctantly and waved her hand. Jane Mo didn''t move. After watching the car leave, she gently drooped her shoulders. "Let''s go..." Jane Mo said and walked in the direction of the car. But after taking a few steps, I found that J didn''t move. She looked back at J, "what''s the matter?" J looked at the car turning into the road, looked back, and said, "it''s okay." Jane Mo looked at J suspiciously. "I just checked out and thought you were wrong. Now it seems that you are even more out of your mind..." she looked at J, "what''s the matter?" "Nothing!" J rolled his eyes. "Let''s go." Jian Mo snorted. For J''s pride now, I have a feeling that the children at home have grown up and have their own worries ¡­¡­ After star got on the bus, he grabbed Shi Shaoqin, put his small arm around his neck and kissed him. Then he buried his little face in his neck and stopped crying and making noise. However, his small body was in Shi Shaoqin''s arms, and he was obviously sad because Shi Shaoqin just didn''t want him. Qingqing looks at Shi Shaoqin and stops talking. She wants to ask something. She looks at star and goes back. "Go home!" Star said in a stuffy voice. His voice was hoarse because he cried at that time. "OK." Shi Shaoqin answered. Star rubbed Shi Shaoqin with a small face and begged for favor, "don''t lake." He groaned with grievances in his voice. Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes. Without saying too much, he understood what star meant. He doesn''t want to go back to crescent lake, but to go back to Mo palace. He sighed secretly, and he answered, "OK." The person in charge of Los Angeles looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror. In his impression, the cold-blooded and ruthless Qin Shao had such a helpless and soft side. "Let the airport arrange." Shi Shaoqin gave orders. "Yes!" The person in charge of Los Angeles answered and dialed the bottom person''s phone to inform him to arrange a special plane to leave Los Angeles. In fact, when he asked Qingqing to return with star, he didn''t plan to return to crescent lake. No matter what Jian Mo will say to Gu Beichen when she goes back, J sees the person in charge of Los Angeles. Even if he doesn''t know him, he must have some ideas after being in Mo palace for so long. He doesn''t intend to return star to Jane Mo in the end, so she can''t know That will only increase her psychological burden! Chapter 1162 Shi Shaoqin held star all the time. The little guy lay on his shoulder like this, and his body was always twitching because of sadness. Every time star smokes, Shi Shaoqin''s heart shrinks. He doesn''t want to leave such a bad psychological shadow on star, but obviously, the idea that he may not want him has been branded in star''s heart. Even if he goes to sleep, star may forget. However, Shi Shaoqin underestimated the child''s subconsciousness at the moment. Later, for a long time, star was full of disgust with Los Angeles, whether he had memory or not. It is often mentioned that once his small face is wrinkled, he is unhappy in an instant. He''s not going to have a stone, because he''s going to have a stone at home! Star lay quietly on Shi Shaoqin''s shoulder, put his small hand around his neck and pulled, "star is hungry!" "Let''s eat first." Shi Shaoqin said softly. "No." Star''s voice muttered, "the plane eats." Shi Shaoqin was silent and answered, "OK." Star''s not talking anymore. Shi Shaoqin sighed quietly. His little guy has always been very smart Lack of memory, but still remember to "play" tricks with him. Hungry, eat on the plane. Therefore, he can only speed up the pace of leaving The big palm gently stroked star''s small back. The little guy felt Shi Shaoqin''s caress and his body gradually relaxed. ¡­¡­ When Jane Mo arrived at the emperor and queen, she was obviously in a good mood. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo with a look in his eyes. According to Yunze, Dr. Ge gave her a wrong fetal position Obviously, Mo''er knows her a little better today! "Why are you looking at me like that?" Asked Jane mo. Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and smiled, "what''s the result of the inspection?" "Gu Zong," Jian Mo smiled at Gu Beichen, "did you ask Yunze after the meeting?" Gu Beichen shook his head and smiled, "do you know?!" "Of course..." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "I don''t know anything else. You and I can still guess a little." Paused, "you''re afraid I''m not comprehensive. You must ask Yunze about it." "Yes." Gu Beichen did not refute. "Dr. Ge said, don''t worry too much about the incorrect fetal position. I want to keep my mood happy..." Jian Mo raised her eyebrow. "But did Yunze tell you anything?" Gu Beichen''s line of sight to Shang Jianmo. If she doesn''t say anything, she won''t believe it. "I will work hard in the next few months." Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face showed helplessness. "Huh?" "Yunze said, I can''t touch you!" Gu Beichen sighed, "I have reason to doubt that he took me with him because he couldn''t touch he Yining!" "..." Jane Mo was stunned and laughed, "Mr. Gu, it''s time to test men''s loyalty." "Huh?" Jian Mo raised her eyebrow. "There were not all gossip a few days ago. An Olympic champion chased his wife for so many years and finally got together... But he cheated when his wife was pregnant!" Gu Beichen frowned. "Such a man is the most scum!" Jian Mo glanced, "a woman has to bear all the life inconvenience caused by having children for him to have children, but at this time, she even talks about things with her body. It''s no more slag!" "..." Gu Beichen twitched at the corners of his mouth. "Nothing, I believe you..." Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "You won''t!" Gu Beichen smiled, "my body can bear it. I could bear it for four and a half years!" At the mention of four and a half years, Jane Mo laughed. At that time, she misunderstood the intentions of her family''s president Gu and left with the ball. It was not easy for president Gu to keep his body as jade. Looking at Jian Mo happy, Gu Beichen''s sight becomes deep. "By the way, ah Chen!" "Huh?" Jian Mo''s eyes were shining. "I went downstairs from Xiangyu and met the child... Well, it''s the blue agate child I gave us to polish together." "Oh?" Gu Beichen had an accident. "Alas, seeing him, I think of Xiao Yan again..." Jian Mo shriveled his mouth. However, he was not very sad. Instead, he supported the table with his arms and looked out. "If Xiao Yan was still there, he would grow so cute." Thinking, she looked at Gu Beichen, "after all, his mother, I gave birth to the little devil with milk bag!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s eyes and became deeper and deeper. He didn''t speak, just listened to Jane mo. Mention Xiaoyan again, she has no previous sadness, only pious blessings and thoughts Just Gu Beichen didn''t have much emotion on his face, but he already had some ideas in his heart. When Jian Mo said that she was on the rise, Shen Chu was just looking for her. About the design of the Expo Park. "Gu Beichen, as I told you before, you can''t stop me from participating in the design of the Expo Park..." Jian Molin left and confirmed it again towards Gu Beichen. Generally, when she calls Gu Beichen by name and surname, most of them are not negotiable. Gu Beichen sighed softly, "Mo''er, I have used public affairs for personal gain many times." Jane Mo blinked at him, smiled and said angrily, "no way, who makes me your wife!" She proudly raised her eyebrows. "She''s still such a capable wife." "..." Gu Beichen twitched at the corners of his mouth and looked helpless. Jian Mo blew Gu Beichen a kiss and turned downstairs to the design department to find Shen Chu. Just after Jian Mo left, Gu Beichen called J, "come to my office and find me." J tilted his mouth and made a dull "Oh" sound. After explaining to the people in the program department not to touch the code he wrote, he went upstairs to find Gu Beichen. "What?!" "Can''t guess why I''m looking for you?" Gu Beichen was cold eyed. J glanced and shook his head proudly, "I don''t know." "When did Shi Shaoqin come to Los Angeles?" Gu Beichen asked. J widened his eyes. "You know he''s coming!" When he saw Gu Beichen''s sneer, he found that Gu Beichen was bombing him at all. I don''t know, he didn''t tell me... I feel it should be him today J didn''t think much and didn''t bend his intestines so much. "I guess I want to peek at Jane Mo?!" Gu Beichen''s face became dark and his voice became dark. He asked, "downstairs in Xiangyu?" "Probably, I just feel that the child''s father is from Mo palace in Los Angeles..." J shrugged. "Qin Shao and I used to be together. I feel that he is in the car." Gu Beichen didn''t speak. He just took his cell phone and dialed the phone. "I''ll Gu Beichen, check whether there is a private plane taking off nearby?" "Look at each other......". Gu Beichen waited and j looked at him curiously. After about a minute, the person on the phone replied, "there will be a private plane flying to Monterey in half an hour." Gu Beichen''s eyes are already familiar with the bottom, and his voice is indisputable: "find reasons and fly." Chapter 1163 The other party was silent before he answered, "OK." Gu Beichen hung up and got up. "I''ll meet him at the airport. Don''t say anything to Mo''er." After a pause, he glanced at J, "if you don''t want Mo''er to think of unpleasant things." J rolled his eyes. "I''m sure I won''t say... Or I''ll tell her then." The memory of Mo palace is cruel to Jian Mo, and he knows it very well. Although he thinks Qin Shao is innocent, it''s OK to joke occasionally. He won''t say it in normal times. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and walked out. "Hey, won''t you have lunch with us?" J asked. Gu Beichen kept walking, "in Shen Chu''s side, she doesn''t have time to have lunch with me today..." Mo''er''s love for design did not diminish because he became a mother or because of him. Now, with the addition of Shen Chu, this pair of "haunting" combination, but in addition to the original love enemy, has become the most suitable partner in work. J looked at Gu Beichen''s figure out of the office, rolled his eyes dissatisfied, and muttered, "I''m going to blackmail some money with you when the program is finished!" With his mouth curled, J got up and walked out. However, after taking two steps, he gradually had doubts on his face The person in charge of Los Angeles took his wife and children. How could Qin Shao sit in that car? This... Is not in line with Qin Shao''s style?! J frowned and felt strange, but he didn''t think much. After all, he is just a simple big boy. In addition to his high IQ for computers, he lacks other IQ. Gu Beichen drove all the way to the airport His chest seemed to have something to break out of the cocoon. The answer was right in front of him. He just had to take another step forward to see the truth, which made him impatient. Although, he thought his idea was a little crazy. But who knows? After all, Shi Shaoqin is a madman! ''squeak - '' The harsh sound of brakes came from the airport parking lot and attracted the attention of people in the parking lot. Gu Beichen got off the bus and ran to the waiting hall with great strides Someone at the airport has been informed that Gu Beichen passed the security check directly through the special channel and strode to the VVIP terminal. "Chen Shao," said the airport staff, "the private plane has been delayed to an hour, and people are in the waiting room." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and turned around and entered the VVIP waiting room. The small but not small waiting room is filled with soft music, which is different from the noise outside. It''s very comfortable here. In the past, there were only two people in the whole waiting room except the airport ground crew. Gu Beichen went over and sat down opposite Shi Shaoqin. He looked around with some perseverance and determined that there was only Shi Shaoqin and the men around him and no one else. "I just stayed in Los Angeles, and you''ll catch up with me..." Shi Shaoqin glanced at Beichen calmly. "I haven''t seen you for a while, miss me?" Gu Beichen''s face was dark, "where''s the child?" Shi Shaoqin frowned. His long, narrow eyes looked at Gu Beichen and obviously crossed a trace of doubt, "child? What child?" "The child Mo''er saw!" Gu Beichen didn''t detour. He stared at Shi Shaoqin tightly and didn''t let go of his expression. Shi Shaoqin chuckled, "Beichen, you came after me just to ask such a endless question?" After a pause, he seemed to think of something, "it seems that it should be you who delayed the flight!" Yes, yes. Gu Beichen looked at the man standing next to Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin motioned slightly. The person in charge of Los Angeles nodded and retreated to the door, leaving two men with "private" space. "Shaoqin, is Xiao Yan alive?" Gu Beichen asked directly. Facing Shi Shaoqin, he doesn''t need to be gentle. They are too familiar with each other to be necessary. Shi Shaoqin smiled, a mocking smile. "Let me tell you the purpose of your visit," Shi Shaoqin said quietly. "Mo''er met a child, and I even went to see her secretly in Los Angeles. You suspect that your child is not dead at all, so you let the plane delay and stop me... Oh, no, you want to stop the child, right?" Gu Beichen frowned. "Beichen, when did you become so impractical and childish?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was slightly cold. "Still, if people have some expectations, they will give themselves some fantasies." Being ridiculed by Shi Shaoqin, Gu Beichen''s ink pupil became familiar with it. "Shaoqin, you know how much Mo''er cares about Xiao Yan!" Gu Beichen gritted his teeth. Shi Shaoqin smiled, "well, I''ll let someone dig out his bones this time..." seeing Gu Beichen''s face slightly changed, he continued, "just stay in front of me if you care. Just right, you can also use bones to make a DNA comparison and solve your doubts!" "Shi Shaoqin!" "Isn''t it good?" Shi Shaoqin raised his eyebrows with an obvious sarcastic smile on his face. "This proves that you don''t expect your child to be alive... Or fantasize about other people''s children as your own children." "Shut up..." Gu Beichen gritted his teeth, and his cold face was full of haze. Obviously, Shi Shaoqin''s words at this moment successfully angered Gu Beichen Shi Shaoqin restrained his smile. "It is said that Mo''er''s fetus is not very stable recently?" The light voice was indifferent. "If he knows your guess, you think..." Shi Shaoqin deliberately paused, didn''t continue to say, but opened his mouth slowly, "tut Tut, I don''t know if she can slow down if she doesn''t keep the baby!" In a word, it is Gu Beichen''s death. Gu Beichen was angry and hit Shi Shaoqin with a fist. Shi Shaoqin leaned back slightly, and Kaman avoided Gu Beichen''s boxing style. "I stabbed you in the mind and became angry with shame?" Shi Shaoqin sneered. Gu Beichen clenched his hands tightly, and the anger just aroused by Shi Shaoqin calmed down. "If you want me to be your enemy..." Gu Beichen said coldly, "you''d better not let me find anything!" Then he stared at Shi Shaoqin deeply. Without saying anything, he turned and left. Outside, people at the airport are still waiting. "Chen Shao, can the plane take off?" "I want all the surveillance at the airport in nearly three hours." Gu Beichen didn''t answer and ordered. The airport staff was a little surprised, "all?" "All!" The airport personnel grinned and answered, "OK." Gu Beichen paused, turned his head and looked out at the apron He doesn''t think much. Some clues always lead him. Although this intuition is somewhat ridiculous, inexplicably, he just doesn''t believe Shi Shaoqin. Looking back, Gu Beichen looked at the direction of VVIP waiting room If there is no airtight wall, he won''t believe it and can''t stare at him! Chapter 1164 "Qin Shao..." after Gu Beichen left, the person in charge of Los Angeles went to Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin smiled and didn''t speak. At that time, J had been staring at the car, and he predicted that there would be an accident. Beichen seems indifferent, but his mind is very heavy and delicate. Mo''er is what he cares about. Naturally, he wants to do what she wants. Sure enough When he informed the plane at the airport that it would be delayed, he had guessed that it was Beichen. Beichen came to find him, but he just confirmed his guess Drooping eyes, took the mobile phone and called Qingqing. "You take star from Linshi instead of Monterey and fly to Ottawa." Shi Shaoqin said, "I''ll send someone to follow." "Na Qin Shao..." Qing Qing asked. "When I get to Monterey, I''ll change planes." Shi Shaoqin said with some worry, "is star awake?" "Not yet!" Qingqing looked at star and said softly. "Go now. When I wake up, I''m still underground. I''m afraid I can''t get him." Shi Shaoqin was worried. "OK." Qingqing answered and hung up. At that time, I went directly to the airport. But before the car left the city, star fell asleep on Qin Shao''s shoulder Qin Shao gave star to her and directly asked the Mogong people in Los Angeles to take them to Linshi. Because he didn''t know the next situation, Qin Shao just told her to take star to a hotel in the city and make plans, but he went to the airport. Qingqing knew that Qin Shao was just in case. After all, star and Gu Beimo wanted to give it back to them. Now there was an accident, and Qin Shao decided not to pay it back. The battle of wits between Qin Shao and Gu Beichen may also open the front Qingqing guessed well. Shi Shaoqin knows Gu Beichen. Similarly, Gu Beichen also knows him. Quickly read the monitoring of the airport, focusing on the personnel with children around two years old But in the end, nothing was found. Gu Beichen''s deep eyes were not relieved because he didn''t find anything. On the contrary, his heart seemed to be more and more blocked. "Chen Shao, Monterey''s private plane will take off in three minutes." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered and said, "give me a copy of the passenger information of all non Monterey flights today." "OK." Airport personnel answered. Soon he came with a list. Gu Beichen once scanned, and there were people with children, but none of them were about two years old. Standing in the control tower, Gu Beichen can see the airport apron and takeoff lane at 360 degrees. Watching the luxury private plane climb, Gu Beichen gradually narrowed his eyes. If Shaoqin wants to hide him, or he guesses that there is a little possibility Thinking, Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes suddenly opened, and the bottom of his eyes flashed a touch of horror. At the same time, he walked out and called Xiao Qiang. "Chen Shao?" Xiao Qiang''s voice was a little loud and sleepy. "Check today''s flights in Linshi, flights to Monterey, all passenger information..." Gu Beichen ordered, "speed!" Feeling Gu Beichen''s seriousness and anxiety, Xiao Qiang had not woken up and sat up. "OK." Xiao Qiang answered, and the man was already sitting in front of the computer. He didn''t ask Gu Beichen why he didn''t look for J. he just tapped his fingers on the keyboard quickly, but in a moment, he had invaded the airport flight information. Soon, Xiao Qiang sent the list to Gu Beichen Above, the two flights have matching information. A child is one year old and ten months old, and a child is one year old and eleven months old. Gu Beichen sinks his eyes and directly turns to the counter to book a ticket to Monterey. "I''m sorry, sir. There''s no flight to Monterey today." The ground crew said, "there''s a flight to New York at 4 pm. You can transfer." "Is there anyone near the city?" Gu Beichen asked. The ground crew looked at it and shook their heads. "Order to New York..." Gu Beichen said in a deep voice. "OK!" Gu Beichen took the ticket and turned to the parking lot. He didn''t wait at the airport. He needs to go back and arrange Mo''er first Whether it''s true or not, he''ll stop this time. Whether it''s to reassure himself or for Mo''er''s thoughts... He always wants to do something. ¡­¡­ "Kiss, can you let me eat first?" Shen Chu looked at Jian Mo with a broken face. "Also, you are a pregnant woman. Can you eat first?" With that, she pushed a bowl of soup specially made for Jane Mo to her. "Drink first..." Shen Chu drank a mouthful of water. "Looking back, I always know you didn''t eat with me. I''m estimated to have to give me small shoes." Jane Mo rolled her eyes. "I don''t care about you? I don''t know good people..." She picked up the bowl and drank the soup. "Well, what''s your mood about the director''s proposal?" "No mood." Shen Chu decided not to gossip with Jian mo. Why didn''t she know before? Jane Mo is such a gossip It''s overwhelming. "Talk about it, the news has come out of such a big battle to propose to you..." Jian Mo was curious. "The famous director proposed to the daughter of a poor rich family. Tut Tut, this microblog headlines occupy, and I want to participate in a large number of topics." "...." Shen Chu held his forehead and looked innocent. Who can take away the gossip woman Jianmo?! Shen Chu was wailing, and Gu Beichen appeared in the restaurant. "Your general manager is here." "Coming doesn''t affect my mood to interview you!" "..." Shen Chu twitched at the corners of his mouth. Gu Beichen sat down beside Jian Mo at the right time, "how can we eat at this point?" "I''ve been eating. I''m just listening to gossip. Everyone''s finished. We haven''t finished yet." Jane Mo asked, "have you eaten?" Gu Beichen shook his head. "I''ll get it for you..." Jane Mo said and wanted to get up. Gu Beichen held her. "I''ll do it myself." Then Gu Beichen went to get some food. When he came back, Shen Chu had left. "Something''s wrong with foreign companies," Gu Beichen said while eating. "I''m going to the United States this afternoon." "Oh, and then?" Asked Jane mo. "I don''t trust you!" Gu Beichen sighed. Jane Mo smiled, "I''ll go back to the manor and live with my father and mother. Before you come back, I''ll be at home except when necessary!" Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and thought she was too good. Jian Mo stroked his bulging stomach. He was a little more serious than the joke he had just made with Shen Chu. "Ah Chen, I don''t want you to give up business because of me, just like I don''t want you to let me give up design." After a pause, she continued, "I know you''re worried. You haven''t left me since you were pregnant... If you can, I''m afraid you''ll take me directly to work. But you can''t take care of me, so you can''t take me... I understand. So I don''t want to be your burden." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil stared at Jian Mo deeply, and then they looked at each other and smiled. I didn''t take her because I was afraid that his judgment was wrong How can he let Mo''er accept the blow again under the current situation and hope?! Chapter 1165 After arranging for Jian Mo, Gu Beichen called Cen Lanxi again. CEN Lanxi was very happy to hear that Jian Mo took the initiative to live in the manor after Gu Beichen left. They lived in the manor for a while before, but after Xiaojie and Jian Yao started school, they moved back to Changhuan garden for convenience Although she only stayed for a few days, there seemed to be nothing happier for Cen Lanxi. "Don''t worry, your father and I will take good care of Xiaomo." CEN Lanxi said with a smile. "Thank you, mom!" CEN Lanxi heard Gu Beichen say that his nose was a little sour and his thoughts turned over. She spent her whole life walking around and finally being able to live in harmony. When she looked back, she found out how much family time she had wasted. "I''m your mother, Xiaomo is my daughter-in-law, and her stomach is my grandson. What can I thank you for?" CEN Lanxi said angrily, "well, I''ll clean up the house for Xiaomo. Don''t patronize your work when you go out." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, didn''t say anything, and hung up the phone. Looking at the time, Gu Beichen gave J and Shen Chu a few more orders Naturally, Susan is a person who has been with Gu Beichen for a long time. It can be said that he doesn''t need to explain anything to her, so she can handle the things that should be handled properly. The plane climbed to the sky with urgency and tension Gu Beichen tilted his head and looked at the clouds outside the small window. His thin lips began to light up gradually. He always felt that Mo''er couldn''t let go of Xiao Yan''s persistence, but at the moment, why isn''t he?! No matter whether Xiao Yan is really alive or not, or if she leaves that night He always felt that as Xiao Yan''s father, he always had to give himself an explanation. Time spent in flight. The long journey made the three groups of people over 30000 feet feel particularly complicated. After arriving in Monterey, Shi Shaoqin did not continue to take a private plane, but transferred from San Francisco to a civil flight to Ottawa. About half an hour before boarding, Shi Shaoqin called Qingqing. ¡°Star¡­¡­¡± As soon as Shi Shaoqin spoke, he heard star crying on the other end of the phone. He frowned suddenly. "What''s the matter?" "Star won''t let anyone touch him, keep crying, keep crying!" Qingqing said astringently, "it''s OK on the plane. I said I went home and mentioned Qin Shao. He cooperated... But after getting off the plane, I didn''t see you when I arrived at the hotel. In addition, the environment is strange, and star has always been on alert." Qingqing looked at star and cried. Her eyes were filled with fear under the human instinct caused by strangeness. She was very distressed. Shi Shaoqin''s heart was pulled together because of star''s cry, "give star your mobile phone." "OK..." Qingqing hurriedly answered and was about to walk to star. Star''s small body retreated and looked at Qingqing with fear in his eyes. Qingqing''s nose was sour and handed her mobile phone forward. "Star, it''s stone... Stone''s phone." Star looked at his cell phone and kept crying. He didn''t put down his guard because Qingqing mentioned "stone". His current situation is different from that of Jane mo. Jane Mo is an adult. Even if she loses her memory, she has an adult''s judgment of the world. Star is just a child less than two years old. His world is very simple Fear because of strangeness, resist because of fear. Qingqing red eyes, "I''m not close to you, okay?" She pressed the speaker on her mobile phone and put it on the ground. Then she stepped back and said, "take it yourself!" Star was crying, looking at the mobile phone on the ground, looking at Qingqing, who had retreated far away from him. "Take your cell phone..." Qingqing tried to put her voice down softly. After a while, star timidly picked up his cell phone. "Star..." Shi Shaoqin felt the clarity of the cry coming from the receiver and knew that star had taken his cell phone. Star didn''t answer, just crying. "I know you''re scared at the moment," said Shi Shaoqin, whose voice was soft and warm with the spring breeze, which would make people unconsciously put down their guard. "I also know that you may not remember the stone." Star sucked his small nose and listened to Shi Shaoqin talking on the phone. Inexplicably, he gradually stopped crying It''s instinctive dependence and trust. "Stone will probably see you after dinner," Shi Shaoqin said softly. "Can star not cry now, eat with Qingqing first, and then sleep, and we can almost see you." Star''s eyes were filled with tears and his mouth was always flat. Heard that Shi Shaoqin gave time, although he didn''t know how long it would take "OK..." star answered softly, muttering in his nose, especially wronged. Shi Shaoqin''s heart was sour and comforted star a few more words. After Qingqing approached star, he explained a few more words and hung up the phone. The narrow eyes narrowed gently, and there was more and more strong self blame and heartache in the depths of the eyes Shi Shaoqin got up and was ready to board the plane. At the right time, the mobile phone vibrated. He picked it up, put it in his ear and listened to the report from the people inside: "Qin Shao, Gu Beichen will arrive in New York in three hours. Looking at the itinerary, he will go directly from New York to San Francisco... It should be Monterey." Shi Shaoqin was not surprised by Gu Beichen''s move. After all, he is a thoughtful man. With doubt and understanding of him, how can we not check it thoroughly? However, he didn''t expect that he would put down Jane Mo and come alone "Stop him according to the original plan." Shiqin has been ordered to board the plane at the same time. He went to Ottawa without using his identity information Although he can''t completely deceive Beichen, as long as he delays time, he can get rid of Beichen. Although he clearly doesn''t need such trouble, there are many ways to dispel Beichen''s idea But he couldn''t bear star to cry, and he didn''t want to break his faith in star. Boarding, taking off Time just runs at its unique speed. Obviously, it''s no use worrying, but Shi Shaoqin kept looking at the time. He''s worried. He''s worried that he won''t cry when star wakes up later. The little guy cried from Los Angeles to Ottawa, and his voice was obviously hoarse. At the thought of his pitiful appearance, Shi Shaoqin felt that he didn''t want him. Shi Shaoqin''s heart was still tightened with rope He has no feelings for a long time, no matter family, friendship or love. For Jue Chi, it was a natural responsibility. If he had to say family affection, he seemed to have no idea how to express it. Can be different for star. I don''t know whether it''s because of Jian Mo or because he is too eager to pursue the sunshine in the process of treating star His feelings for star are different. I''m glad to be separated from him, and I haven''t been happy with him. Now, even if he loses his memory because of drugs, star''s dependence on him has never changed every time he wakes up How can he let go of such feelings?! "Dear passengers, we are going to Ottawa..." The captain''s voice interrupted Shi Shaoqin''s thoughts. He looked at the time. He would arrive in half an hour. Turn your head and look out the small window. Shi Shaoqin only felt that his heart and urgent breathing became slow ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen stood in the lobby of Ottawa MacDonald Cartier International Airport and looked at the time. His sight fell on the big screen of the airport. Chapter 1166 Gu Beichen looked at the above display. The plane from San Francisco to Ottawa will arrive in half an hour. The eagle''s eyes looked at the time and gradually coagulated. On the way to the airport, he thought over everything. Just as he knew Shaoqin, Shaoqin naturally knew him. In order to prevent him, Shaoqin is afraid to make some smoke bombs to disturb him Of course, the premise is that he wants to hide what?! Let Xiao Qiang check the flights taking off in the United States at that time, whether in Los Angeles or near the city. Eliminate some useless ones and screen out some that meet the requirements For fear of just in case, he even checked the flights of two countries close to the United States. Finally, I will lock Ottawa, mainly... Coming from San Francisco, which will obviously be more suitable in time. Of course Some sensory components are not excluded here. He just stood in the perspective of Shaoqin. If he was Shaoqin, what would he do. He doesn''t know whether he will lose the first opportunity or seize the first opportunity After all, whether he goes to Monterey or Ottawa, it''s a fifty-five chance! He gambled on his understanding of Shaoqin. On the flight to New York, he used his relationship and did not show that he had not boarded the plane. And when New York goes to San Francisco, he has naturally made arrangements Shaoqin spent a time difference in Los Angeles, while he went to Ottawa and used the same means. Treat the other body with the other way, that''s all! Time, a little move When the sound of the arrival of the plane came from the radio, Gu Beichen went to the pick-up port. Before, because Shi Shaoqin took Mo''er away, he and Shaoqin had a chase He doesn''t mind playing such a game again. But this time, he won''t give Shaoqin a chance! Hidden in the crowd, Gu Beichen didn''t appear in Shi Shaoqin''s vision Xu is anxious to see star because he knows Gu Beichen has just arrived in New York at this time. He doesn''t pay much attention to anything. Picked up Shi Shaoqin''s car and drove away from the airport. Gu Beichen dialed the phone and asked someone to keep up. Shi Shaoqin is a careful man. He wants to know where Shaoqin has gone. He can''t follow his car alone. He will only be found soon "Master Xiao, can Gu Beichen stay with Shi Shaoqin?" Someone asked the person standing in front of the glass wall of the airport hall. It seemed that it was Xiao Mu who helped Shi Shaoqin when Gu Beichen worked for him. Xiao Mu smiled wilfully at the corners of his mouth, didn''t answer, but said with a sigh: "tell me, at the beginning, he and Shi Shaoqin promised me to come to XK to find me... But later, Jian Mo had an accident and was pregnant again... Does Gu Beichen not remember what he promised me?" The man twitched at the corner of his mouth, "shouldn''t he?!" "Then why didn''t he come?" Xiao Mu frowned, "you can''t wait for Jian Jie to grow up and take over the emperor. Come to me again? What do I want him to do?" The man pulled the corners of his mouth and didn''t know how to answer. Xiao Mu sighed, "it''s not easy for Shi Shaoqin to arrive..." "What does Master Xiao mean?" "Help me. After all, I''m kind-hearted." Xiao Mu turned around, "help Gu Beichen deal with Shi Shaoqin once, and help Shi Shaoqin deal with Gu Beichen once. Well, it''s still very fair!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The man looked at Xiao Mu''s back and grinned secretly. Is master Xiao angry? The man followed him and said with a smile, "master Xiao, are you angry with Gu Beichen or yourself?" Xiao Mu looked at him and didn''t speak. The man obviously couldn''t help laughing, but he didn''t dare to continue. In fact, Lord Xiao is angry with himself. At the beginning, Gu Beichen and Gu Beichen agreed to go to XK, but Xiao forgot the agreed time. For Gu Beichen, at this time, I''m afraid he was filled with careful thought. Lord Xiao can''t blame anyone now. He''s angry. Naturally, he wants Gu Beichen to suffer. ¡­¡­ Xu Shi Shaoqin didn''t expect that Xu Gu Beichen knew him too well Gu Beichen followed him all the way to the hotel, but Shi Shaoqin didn''t find it. Using extraordinary means, Gu Beichen found the check-in information from Qingqing. The floor where she lives is the floor that Shi Shaoqin just arrived. Almost instantly, seeing Shi Shaoqin from Ottawa Airport, Gu Beichen''s whole heart was hanged up when the information coincided If, if Xiao Yan is still alive Such an idea is burning in Gu Beichen''s heart with a fire. With the rapid pace, it becomes more and more vigorous. He is not a person who is not calm, but if... The child who has left suddenly tells him that he is still alive, such joy can not be expressed by words. The sound of "Ding" crossed and the elevator reached Qingqing''s floor. From beginning to end, Gu Beichen didn''t find J for all the system intrusion. Fortunately, Xiao Qiang has no problem with such things. Not that I don''t believe in J, but that there is a difference between intimacy and estrangement. In J''s heart, Shi Shaoqin is always much more important Standing at the door of the room, Gu Beichen could feel the sound of his heart beating. Thinking about how to enter the room, suddenly, the door came from inside. Subconsciously, Gu Beichen turned sideways to the door and saw a cart pushed out Above, there are dishes and other things cleaned up from the room. When the room service saw Gu Beichen, he was stunned and just wanted to speak. Gu Beichen dodged in when the door was about to be closed. "Ah!" Qingqing screamed. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, looked over Qingqing and looked at Shi Shaoqin who came over because of Qingqing''s scream. Qingqing''s face was shocked. She knew Gu Beichen, so she was worried uncontrollably in her eyes. Shi Shaoqin obviously didn''t expect Gu Beichen to catch up here, even so fast... He was just like him. It''s just a moment. I understand that Gu Beichen''s so-called going to New York is also a smoke bomb "What are you doing?" There was a fleeting emotion in the bottom of Shi Shaoqin''s eyes. "Los Angeles didn''t look at me enough, but it came here?" Gu Beichen ignored Shi Shaoqin''s deliberate ambiguity and just walked in For him, it was a surprise. If Shaoqin really hid Xiao Yan, then his sudden appearance must be too late for Shaoqin to move. "Let''s go out and talk about something..." Shi Shaoqin stopped Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes looked at Shi Shaoqin fiercely. His actions made him more and more sure. "Get out of the way!" Gu Beichen''s voice was cold. Shi Shaoqin snorted coldly, "why, do you want to fight?" "No time..." Gu Beichen looked at Shi Shaoqin coldly. "If I find anything, I will only beat you!" The words fell. Before Shi Shaoqin could speak, he dodged and wanted to go to the suite Unfortunately, Shi Shaoqin reacted too quickly. When Gu Beichen was about to approach the suite door, he stopped in front of him again. "Let go!" Gu Beichen''s anger meeting has reached its peak. This time, Gu Beichen didn''t give Shi Shaoqin a chance to respond. He directly punched him with a strong fist style Shi Shaoqin''s subconscious evasion was just a temporary gap. Gu Beichen had already opened the door of the suite. When he saw the moment inside, Gu Beichen''s pupils suddenly expanded Chapter 1167 Shi Shaoqin also had a strange scratch on his face. In fact, when seeing Gu Beichen chasing here, he was contradictory at that moment. Thinking and letting Beichen know, it''s good to know that mor''s current situation, plus star, his husband and father, have the right to choose whether to fight hard or give up the one mor is pregnant with now. Go to the bedroom door Shi Shaoqin felt Gu Beichen''s wrong face, slightly invisible and slightly frowned, and looked into the bedroom When he saw the situation inside, the corners of his mouth twitched uncontrollably. Inside, where is star''s shadow?! Not only that, on the bed and on the ground, there are also leather whips, chains, candles, silicone tight clothes and other items in disorder, just like an S and M scene! "..." Shi Shaoqin twitched at the corners of his mouth. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is already familiar with it and can''t see to the end. In today''s world, it can be said that both of them dominate one side. This situation is always a bit ambiguous. "You''re really interested." Gu Beichen sneered, "why, I didn''t play enough at first, but now I''m addicted? Such a heavy taste..." The sarcasm was merciless. The past, especially Luo Songxian''s past, cannot be mentioned by Shi Shaoqin! But it happened that Gu Beichen mentioned it and also mentioned it so recklessly. He''s angry. He won the bet! Even, he didn''t give Shaoqin the slightest room for reaction But I was disappointed. No Xiao Yan! Is it true that there is no Xiao Yan Xiao Yan left them that winter. He said Mo''er was persistent. Isn''t he?! Therefore, he was angry and lost. Naturally, he wanted Shi Shaoqin to be unhappy. Sure enough! Shi Shaoqin''s gorgeous face was suddenly dark and filled with haze. There was nothing to say. Shi Shaoqin had already punched Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen was also angry at this moment. They started to fight when they didn''t agree. It''s not surprising at all. The large guest room became too small for the two people who fought. Qingqing looked at the two men who couldn''t fight each other. For a moment, she couldn''t see who was better. She was worried. While avoiding their actions, she pretended to walk to the suite inadvertently. Gu Beichen''s expression just now should be that he didn''t find Star Star is sleeping, but it''s inside! Qingqing suddenly "cluttered" in her heart, and her pace of moving to the suite also accelerated for a few minutes. When she saw the appliances in the suite, the corners of her mouth twitched uncontrollably, but her eyes widened. Where''s star?! Qingqing swallowed and was worried at the bottom of her eyes. However, she couldn''t say anything at the moment. She could only look at the two men who were hit hard by you and me. I don''t know how long it took Gu Beichen to punch Shi Shaoqin Jun in the face. Shi Shaoqin was unwilling to show weakness and waved a punch in Gu Beichen''s eye socket One corner of their mouth was bruised and swollen, and one eye socket became black. Ben is two handsome men. It''s funny at the moment. "Shi Shaoqin, I''m asking you again..." Gu Beichen gritted his teeth. "Is Xiao Yan alive?" Shi Shaoqin sneered, "if you think he''s alive, I say it''s useful to die?" He hissed, "but if you think he''s dead, just your persistence, do I have to follow you?" Two questions, full of ridicule. Gu Beichen really wants to tear up Shi Shaoqin''s annoying face. Unfortunately, although he is proud, he knows very well that he can''t do it. He and Shi Shaoqin, from the original imprisonment to the back because of Mo''er''s entanglement When Xiao Yan left, Shi Shaoqin felt guilty and swallowed his help even if it was unreasonable. I can''t distinguish between friends and enemies for a long time. The relationship between enemies and friends makes them sympathize with each other, but they also hate it. Gu Beichen coldly took back his sight and didn''t say anything. It was as if nothing had happened and walked out "Beichen!" Shi Shaoqin spoke and stopped Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen stopped, but didn''t look back. "Do you believe in cause and effect?" Shi Shaoqin turned and looked at Gu Beichen''s back. This man is not the big boy he saw at the beginning Without the warmth in the sun, there is only the cold domineering arrogance now. This man will become what he is now. He was tortured by himself Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes. Gu Beichen slightly turned his face, glanced back and said, "why, heavy taste can''t save your soul. Are you ready to become a monk after realizing Buddhism and Taoism?" "..." Shi Shaoqin didn''t know how to speak when Gu Beichen choked. He knew that Beichen was angry that he didn''t see star at the moment. "Everything, good and bad, has its causes and consequences..." Shi Shaoqin ignored Gu Beichen''s sarcasm and said, "for example, if it weren''t for me, you wouldn''t be so strong now. Even, Gu mohuai made a move at the beginning. According to your previous character of ''no competition with the world'', you can''t decide who the emperor is in charge." What he said was calm, but it didn''t prevent him from giving back his venomous reply. Gu Beichen snorted coldly. He didn''t speak, but looked forward with his eyes. "Everything has its cause and effect..." Shi Shaoqin stressed again. Gu Beichen frowned and looked back at Shi Shaoqin The two men''s eyes were right, but in an instant, the electro-optic flint seemed to be able to fight again as long as there was a fuse. Of course, this one didn''t fight. No matter Gu Beichen or Shi Shaoqin, no one will be childish. Gu Beichen left and left with the anger that he didn''t find Xiao Yan. He is not only angry with Shi Shaoqin, but also angry with himself It was a father''s helplessness and remorse for not protecting his children. After Gu Beichen left, Qingqing hurriedly said, "Qin Shao, star..." Star is gone, right under my nose, as if he had disappeared out of thin air. Shi Shaoqin was not worried as expected. Qingqing looked at him with a blank face. "It''s true that there are reasons and results!" Shi Shaoqin spoke. "..." Qingqing took a smoke from the corner of her mouth and was about to doubt whether Qin Shao was going to become a monk as Gu Beichen said. Shi Shaoqin turns around and enters the suite Star disappeared out of thin air, with so many flavors of utensils, full of evil taste. Not only disgusted him, but also disgusted Gu Beichen. He said there are reasons and results It''s because we drugged Mo''er at the beginning, which led to a chain reaction in star and problems in Mo''er''s pregnancy. Is the fetal position incorrect?! That''s just normal. The hidden abnormal phenomenon can not be found out by a fetal examination at all. Mo''er''s blood has been tested. Her current body seems insignificant, but it was dangerous to draw amniotic fluid, but now it is impossible. This is star''s cause and effect. Beichen also put a smoke bomb on him this time. When he came here, he didn''t find star. That''s his cause and effect. He knows about XK helping Beichen. Shi Shaoqin narrowed his eyes at those heavy taste utensils Although it''s a guess, it''s 70-80% certain that star was taken away by someone who didn''t know it. In this world, there is only one place that can do this. A place where no matter the underworld or the underworld are reluctant to provoke XK£¡ Shi Shaoqin walked to the window, and his slender and powerful fingers gently crossed the edge of the glass. Sure enough... There are traces of movement there. XK is so fast! However, Gu Beichen entered the neutral position, opened the glass, took star away, and restored the glass Chapter 1168 Xiao Mu holds star in her arms, one old and one small, staring at him with big eyes. Suddenly Star''s claw attacks quickly, pulls Xiao Mu''s ear, and then lets go! Xiao Mu twitched at the corner of his mouth and stared at star. Although the child''s strength is nothing, especially for Xiao Mu, who grew up in XK and was bleeding and injured. Naturally, it hurts. But a child who sleeps and wakes up with amnesia is obviously strange to the environment and people, but he dare to fight him?! Xiao Mu suddenly laughed again significant! Someone came over, first looked at the beautiful star, then leaned over and said to Xiao Mu, "Gu Beichen has left the hotel and looks very angry." "It''s right to be angry..." Xiao Mu smiled, "after all, I''m angry too. I have to calm down." As soon as the man heard this, he pulled at the corners of his mouth and wanted to ask: Master Xiao has calmed down. Does Gu Beichen also need to find a reason to calm down? Of course, he dared not ask. Don''t look at Xiao''s smiling face. As he gets older, he doesn''t seem to be angry when he was young, but a little more kind. But he is the talker of XK, a man who controls a lot of intelligence and cold-blooded mercenaries all over the world. Such a person will never be kind! "Where''s Shi Shaoqin?" Xiao Mu asked. "There is no movement for the time being." The man thought, "it feels like waiting." Xiao Mu smiled and looked at him. He just said "Shi Shaoqin". Star subconsciously controlled his emotions and looked at him eagerly. He couldn''t help but increase his smile. "He was calm when he arrived." "Master Xiao, will Shi Shaoqin know we take star?" "So much fun was left for him. Gu Beichen would not think much because he didn''t know his son was alive, but Shi Shaoqin would guess." Xiao Mu''s voice was sure. Those things are bad taste, but they also remind Shi Shaoqin, Luo Songxian. When it comes to Luo Songxian, Shi Shao Qin will naturally understand that he was in touch with Beichen when he was there. After all, he did not intend to hide his eyes. The boy is smart and cares about star. He will guess. "Send a message to Shi Shaoqin," said Xiao Mu. "Wait for supply and demand to invite him to dinner." "Yes!" The man answered, looked at star, who was not crying or making noise in Xiao Mu''s arms, and then left. "Shall I take you to your house?" Xiao Mu picked up star, "well, there are delicious seafood in supply and demand, and the seafood risotto there is also great..." Star played with the blue agate on his wrist with his small hand. Looking at Xiao Mu''s smile, his small mouth shriveled, but he didn''t resist much. Of course, Xiao Mu knows the current situation of star. When he just took star away, he was still asleep and woke up on the way. Although I was full of strangers to the little guy everywhere, I didn''t resist him at all. In such a situation, Xiao Mu felt that it was fate! Ha ha ha! ¡­¡­ Supply and demand restaurant is a famous seafood restaurant in Ottawa. But at dinner tonight, only one table is occupied except the service staff. From the outside, the angle is just a dead corner. It feels empty inside There was a sign on the door saying "business is suspended". Shi Shaoqin looked at it and pushed the door in. Looking around, Shi Shaoqin walked towards Xiao Mu. Star is eating. He is very clever. He doesn''t cry or make noise. This situation surprised Shi Shaoqin. After all, even Qingqing can''t handle star now. Star saw Shi Shaoqin, his eyes fanned, and his black crystal eyes suddenly lit up. He put down his spoon, regardless of the sauce on his small mouth, rubbed against Shi Shaoqin and hugged him. For star, he doesn''t know who Shi Shaoqin is at the moment, but he just wants him. Shi Shaoqin ignored Xiao Mu. He just spoiled star and put it on his leg. He took his napkin and gently wiped the sauce on his mouth. Xiao Mu looked at this scene and smiled unfathomably. "Unexpectedly, the cold-blooded Mo Gong Qin Shao has such a gentle side..." Xiao Mu''s voice was teasing, "I don''t know, I thought it was a wet father!" Shi Shaoqin didn''t think much of Xiao Mu''s ridicule. "I have never dealt with XK. Today I see and admire it!" Shi Shaoqin looked at Xiao Mu. Although I admire him, I can''t see him ashamed at all. Xiao Mu picked up the wine glass and shook it gently. She didn''t have much emotion about Shi Shaoqin''s compliment. After feeding star some soup, Shi Shaoqin asked, "what conditions does Master Xiao have?" Although star is in his hands now, Shi Shaoqin knows very well that if master Xiao doesn''t agree, he can''t take it away at all. Of course, he doesn''t want to use strong. One is afraid that star will be hurt, and the other is that no matter how strong Mogong is, there is no way to resist XK. It''s an organization like a mountain in the sky. You don''t know when it doesn''t like you, so it gives your intelligence to the enemy. "You are so clever that you can''t guess?" Xiao Mu didn''t answer the question. Shi Shaoqin had a headache. "Gu Beichen promised Mr. Xiao. Shouldn''t Mr. Xiao go to him?" "The boy played a trick with me at the beginning," Xiao Mu didn''t mind. "Although he didn''t mean it, later, I''m afraid he didn''t have the heart to take Jane morna as intentional." Shi Shaoqin didn''t answer with a smile like nothing in his mouth. "But XK people have been fooled. It''s always a joke..." Xiao Mu said here and paused. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes narrowed slightly and looked at the star wrapped around him. His good-looking lips had become a straight line because of forbearance. "I won''t decide star''s life." Shi Shaoqin said after a long time. Xiao Mu slowly leaned back on the chair, "the father owes the son!" "..." Shi Shaoqin looked at Xiao Mu, "I just want him to grow up happily." "Is he happy now?" Xiao Mu looks at star and then at Shi Shaoqin. "..." Shi Shaoqin was speechless. Xiao Mu smiled, "don''t worry, I won''t force people to be difficult." That''s weird! This was added by Xiao Mu himself and Shi Shaoqin at the same time. "Take the age of twelve as the boundary..." Xiao Mu''s voice was calm from beginning to end. "At that time, if star wants to, you can''t object." Shi Shaoqin snorted coldly, "master Xiao, are you sure a child can decide?" "Give everyone a read!" Xiao Mu smiled, "of course, if you promise, I''ll guarantee Jane Mo''s birth." He looked at something cracked at the bottom of Shi Shaoqin''s eyes and continued, "I''ll solve the problem of star." If you are human, you will have weaknesses. If Shi Shaoqin has any weakness now, the first is definitely star, followed by Jian mo. No matter what emotion it comes from! Xiao Mu made such an offer. Whether it''s star or Jian Mo''s problem, he will naturally find a way to solve it. Although Shi Shaoqin doesn''t think his speed will be slower than Xiao Mu, there is a layer of guarantee, isn''t it? He doesn''t want to bet star''s life! "Lord Xiao is not afraid to lose his wife and lose his soldiers?" Shi Shaoqin sneered. "That''s my business..." Xiao Mu said, and the smile on his face gradually converged. "Of course, in fact, you know very well that since I''ve decided, today you agree, that''s the best, don''t agree... You can''t take him away." The words fell, and the sight of Xiao Mu fell on star. At the right time, star looked at Xiao Mu, but he held Shi Shaoqin tightly with his small hand. It was subconscious dependence for fear of being taken away from Shi Shaoqin''s arms Chapter 1169 Master Xiao looked relaxed from beginning to end, as if he was talking about a very ordinary thing. Shi Shaoqin pondered and looked down slightly. He looked at Star lying on his shoulder, pitiful and dependent on him... For a long time, he didn''t answer. Mr. Xiao took a sip of red wine and looked at little star with unspeakable joy in his eyes. Gu Beichen has good genes and Jian Mo has a high IQ. Now the situation is that star can''t come back to them and is bound to grow up in Mo palace In this case, he doesn''t need to worry about the early training. To survive, you must learn to be strong. Save some things. Ten years later, you also have your own independent opinions, which is naturally very good. "Since Lord Xiao has given star ten years," Shi Shaoqin said slowly, "then I also want to have a time with Lord Xiao." Xiao Mu smiled, "two years." Shi Shaoqin was slightly stunned. Unexpectedly, Xiao Mu directly saw through his mind. "Jian Mo''s problem now is not the wrong fetal position, but the subsequent pregnancy reaction left by you drugging her..." Xiao Mu slowly said, "now not only her amniotic fluid is useless to star, but even the progesterone produced will have some negative effects on star... So you dare not take risks." Master Xiao knew it all and smiled, "am I right?!" Shi Shaoqin did not refute. It''s not surprising that an XK in charge of powerful intelligence will know this. "In two years, Jian Mo''s baby is almost as big as star..." Xiao Mu put down his glass. "As for the residual side effects on star, if I can''t eliminate them, the ten-year appointment will be invalid." "Good!" Shi Shaoqin answered without thinking, "but..." "If your people study star''s medicine first, I''ll lose!" Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and looked at Xiao Mu''s line of sight, vaguely showing a trace of horror. The man thought what he thought No matter what you think in advance or what you do after seeing him. Shi Shaoqin felt that if he was an enemy with such a mind, no wonder those who got into trouble with XK came to no good end. Look at star, but star is watching Xiao Mu. For star is not afraid of Xiao Mu, or resist Xiao Mu, Shi Shaoqin has a taste of food But think about it. If star is big enough to take over XK, it may not be a bad thing. After all, that place has a deep relationship with the dragon family If the Dragon owl finally returns to the dragon''s house, he can be regarded as an acquaintance! "Don''t bother Mr. Xiao..." Shi Shaoqin got up with star in his arms. Although his attitude was cold and arrogant, he showed respect. "I arranged for you to leave." Xiao Mu glanced at Shi Shaoqin. "Gu Beichen knows you too well. I''m afraid you may not be able to retreat all over." Shi Shaoqin frowned, "how does Master Xiao know that I really don''t want to tell him about star''s life?" If Xiao Mu didn''t take star away at that time, in fact, he didn''t really want to stop Beichen from knowing Xiao Mu smiled, "people are selfish..." In a word, the thread in Shi Shaoqin''s heart was broken. Yes, people are selfish. At that time in the hotel, he really didn''t intend to stop Beichen in the end. Even if Beichen knows the existence of star, considering the current situation of Mo''er, he will not tell Mo''er. The final result is that star will be with him Because Beichen can''t afford to bet that Mo''er gave up her current pregnancy because she saved star. But that was then, this is now After talking with Xiao Mu about the conditions, he is confident to eliminate the dormant silence in star with the combination of Xi Cheng and XK. So, can star stay with him for two more years? "Good!" Shi Shaoqin put down his arrogance and pride and looked at star and answered. Xiao Mu''s smile deepened. Looking at Shi Shaoqin, there was appreciation in his shrewd eyes. No matter how hard you are, there are soft places. Shi Shaoqin can let go of his arrogance towards this child... It''s not easy than anything. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. Ye Chenyu sat in his private detective agency, which had not opened again, eating instant noodles and playing games, which was never easier. The mobile phone rang at the right time. He took it and saw that it was Chen, so he picked it up. "Daughter in law, miss me early in the morning?" "Don''t cry so well..." Chen pushed open the door of the office. "Who''s your daughter-in-law? Don''t think that''s what. I''m your man." "Why, do you dislike my poor skills?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. "Do you want to find another man?" "Bah!" Hearing Ye Chenyu''s ambiguous words, Chen Yu blushed uncontrollably. That night in the hotel, her first time, anyway, she didn''t know whether ye Chenyu was In short, this man is a hungry wolf. She didn''t eat her feet in one night, which made her feel like she had participated in a high-intensity field training, and her whole body hurt the next day. Ye Chenyu felt Chen Chen''s shy, and did not say anything, but "hissing" the mouth. "What did you eat?" Chen Yu suddenly asked. In the leader''s question, ye Chenyu swallowed the instant noodles in his mouth, "beef noodles!" "Lie, deduct points!" Chen Yu sneered, "6 points!" "..." Ye Chenyu heard this and held his forehead and wailed, "the total driver''s license is 12 points. You half are too cruel!" Chen Yu smiled. "It''s all right. If you eat instant noodles again, you''ll lose your points... Don''t think about driving without a license!" "It''s all right. Don''t you have 6 points left?!" Ye Chenyu grinned, "I''ll only do half of it..." There was an obvious flirtation in his voice, and half of what he deliberately said was full of ambiguity. ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu twitched at the corners of her mouth. She was ashamed of Ye Chenyu''s ruffian, but her heart beat badly. "Ye Chenyu!" "Call your husband!" Ye Chenyu looked at it and ate a few mouthfuls of instant noodles. With a sigh, he threw it into the trash can. "You haven''t dealt with Lao Chen. What''s his name, husband?" Chen Shuo spits. Chen Shuo opens the takeout website and orders breakfast. The address is from ye Chenyu detective agency. Very simple, a cage of meat bags, a cage of vegetable bags, a bowl of millet porridge. Ye Yu was lying on the sofa in a leisurely and casual manner in front of the tea table. "I''ve finished Lao Chen. How many points do you give?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrow. "The driver''s license is 12 points. You can''t take several copies, can you?" Chen Yu heard Ye Chenyu''s meaning and finished Lao Chen. The six points deducted must not be enough. "Deal with Lao Chen. You have a red book. What driver''s license do you want?" The thought of Chen''s soft voice was a little discouraged. Last night, I heard from my mother that it was really not easy to deal with my father. Ye Chenyu looked up and was poked into his heart by Chen Yu''s provocative voice early in the morning. Turn your head and look out of the window The sun is shining, it doesn''t rain! "Daughter in law..." Ye Chenyu''s voice was a little hoarse. "It didn''t rain today. I held a sun umbrella... No problem?!" Chapter 1170 Chen Chen was stunned at first, and then his face turned red like a tomato. "Ye Chenyu, what are you thinking this morning?" Chen Chen was annoyed, "I''m still in the office!" "Well, the next time you''re not in the office, flirt with you..." Ye Chenyu answered, and his voice was obviously full of fun. "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth and gnashed his teeth. Ye Chenyu looked at the time. "Well, I won''t tease you..." paused. "I''ll talk to Lao Chen tonight. Don''t worry, take it at one fell swoop!" "Brag!" Chen Yu''s voice is a little stuffy. Ye Chenyu sighed softly and felt sorry for Chen. But he couldn''t help saying, "you hate to marry like this. It''s hard for your old Chen to be angry." "Ye Chenyu!" Chen Yu immediately fried the wool. "Right, it''s just like the overlord flower of our police force..." Ye Chenyu smiled. "So depressed and self-confident, but it''s not like Chen Chen I like at all." Chen Yu''s heart softened in an instant. Ye Chenyu is a man with a mouth. However, he can always know your emotions carefully, and then drive away your unhappiness easily Maybe, this is why she loves him so suddenly, but she is determined?! Girls, who doesn''t want their boyfriend to spoil themselves, but also humorous, not boring?! And ye Chenyu is such a person. "Well, work well..." Ye Chenyu''s voice became evil and spoiled. "I''ll clean up here, too." "Well, good." Ye Chenyu waited for Chen to hang up the phone before he put his mobile phone aside and got up. Just about to start cleaning, there was a knock at the door. Ye Chenyu looked back and saw the takeout man come in with the box "Your order!" The takeout staff took the receipt and signed it for ye Chenyu. After signing, ye Chenyu looked at the hot breakfast, smiled and sent a text message to Chen: my daughter-in-law''s breakfast has been received. I''ll have strength to work after eating. Chen Yu chuckled and replied with a word: good! Ye Chenyu stuffed a steamed stuffed bun in his mouth and replied: good? Little girl, you turned the sky? Chen Yu: it was spoiled by my uncle. In the back, there is a picture with a grimace. Ye Chenyu looked at it and smiled deeply This "little couple", together with an uncle and a girl, always shows a spoiled painting style. It''s sweet and sweet for them to come here, but Chen Qishan, who has been struggling with the weather these days. "Chairman, what do you think we should do with this?" "Ask me everything. Do you pay me your salary?" Chen Qishan asked angrily, "such a little thing can''t be handled well after two days. If you feel incompetent, get out of here!" Then, the man rolled away However, standing outside the office, he wiped the sweat on his forehead and looked confused. Although Chen Qishan is not approachable in the company, as long as there is no big mistake, generally speaking, he won''t lose such a temper But today''s routine inquiry, how did it get to the muzzle of the gun? "What''s the matter with the chairman these days?" Someone inquired. Answer a: I heard I had a quarrel with Taishan at home! Answer B: I heard that the prince wants to be a band and a star. I don''t want to come back to pick up the company Answer C: the chairman''s daughter heard that she had found a particularly poor boyfriend, but the chairman disagreed. Answer Opinions vary. Anyway, everyone agrees that it''s family affairs, so it affects business affairs. Chen Qishan looked at the family photo on his desk, sighed, and looked aside at a separate picture of Chen. Pink Blue fluffy skirt, curled hair, a pink crystal hairpin on the forehead, hooping broken hair, a pair of black round headed princess shoes, white Leisi socks That year, his little princess was only three years old! It''s also a carefree last birthday Since then, her little princess has forgotten what happiness is He took the photo frame and gently stroked little Chen''s face with his old hand. Chen Qishan sighed deeply. Ye Chenyu was evil at first sight. Who knows if he really loves his baby? What if he turns back for three minutes and eats his baby and makes his baby sad again? But now Lao Chen, who is sad about spring and autumn, didn''t expect that ye Chenyu had eaten his baby daughter inside and outside on the night of the first round of negotiation that day Like most fathers, Chen Qishan was reluctant to think that his daughter would leave him. Put down the picture frame, Chen Qishan picked up his mobile phone and opened the text message sent by Ye Chenyu in the morning. Ye Chenyu: uncle, I will visit alone at 8 pm! Of course, if you shut me up tonight, I''ll go directly to the Civil Affairs Bureau with Chen Yu tomorrow... Don''t worry, I''ll solve the problem of Hukou book. I can get the certificate with her without me. Well, you have to believe that it''s easy for a policeman who has been undercover for many years to do something. With the words of "threat", Chen Qishan saw it once and gnashed his teeth once. Unfortunately, ye Chenyu really saw through and blocked his way back. He really thought that even if ye Chenyu came, he would not see him. Alas! But now he was taken by Ye Chenyu, and he was very uncomfortable. At the thought that his daughter might really ignore him and marry Ye Chenyu, Chen Qishan''s heart is like soaking in a vinegar jar, that acid It''s night. Los Angeles is bustling with lights on. People who have been busy all day are looking for their own night life, or lying dead, or crazy Chen Yu knows that ye Chenyu is going to deal with Lao Chen today. He is on duty. He is absent-minded and out of his mind. "Chen Ju, do you look uncomfortable?" Lu Xiaowei is still fiddling with his monitor, "why don''t you go and have a rest first? I''ll stare here..." "Get your stuff!" Chen Chen is a little angry. Lu Xiaowei grinned, "Chen Ju, when will you do things with brother Yu?" Chen Fuer didn''t intend to pay attention to him, but just looked at the big screen in front of the monitoring center. Lu Xiaowei didn''t continue to ask. He was pounding the monitor while muttering something. Chen Shu drooped his shoulders, turned back and looked at Lu Xiaowei powerlessly, "shut up!" Lu Xiaowei was stunned and looked at Chen Yu blankly After watching it for a while, he concluded: "Chen Ju, you are restless tonight. According to my observation, it has nothing to do with your work!" "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth and completely ignored Lu Xiaowei. ¡­¡­ Chenjia villa. There are more than ten minutes to eight o''clock "When ye Chenyu comes over, you can take your temper." Xie Zhenru said, "anyway, my daughter likes it, doesn''t she?" "Hum!" Chen Qishan snorted with a dark face, "I want to see how he will persuade me today!" Chapter 1171 "Master, Mr. Ye is coming!" The housekeeper said and opened his body slightly. Ye Chenyu came in with two boxes in his arms Xie Zhenru looked at Ye Chenyu, then at Chen Qishan with a stiff face, sighed and greeted Ye Chenyu, "come and sit... Have you had dinner?" "Aunt, I''ve eaten!" Ye Chenyu said that he had come forward, put the two boxes to the tea table, looked at Xie Zhenru and said, "aunt, I want to talk to my uncle alone, can I?" Xie Zhenru can see that ye Chenyu is a person with independent ideas and thoughts. She thinks that Chen Chen is determined to talk to him. She is a mother and has no objection from Xiao Chen''s father. "OK..." Xie Zhenru smiled, "I''m just tired." She manipulated the wheelchair. When she passed Chen Qishan, she looked at him with a warning in her eyes. Chen Qishan didn''t see it. Anyway, he will never be persuaded by Ye Chenyu today. Xie Zhenru went upstairs. Ye Chenyu didn''t need Chen Qishan''s greeting, so he sat down at ease. Chen Qishan didn''t speak. Ye Chenyu glanced at the corners of his eyes and smiled. To be honest, he was not angry with Chen Qishan''s opposition. It is normal for a father to love his daughter and hope her daughter can live well. If he had a daughter in the future, I''m afraid he would also think of all kinds of tests and examination of his son-in-law After all, how can the baby in his palm be easily handed over to other men? Ye Chenyu restrained the evil ruffian, opened the box and took out six red wine bottles from inside "I heard that my uncle likes red wine. I found a few bottles. If my uncle doesn''t mind, I''ll take them!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Qishan, with a cold face, just wanted to say ''mind''! One is Ye Chenyu''s salary. What good red wine can you have? Another is that he will not compromise his daughter''s marriage because he likes red wine. However, the words haven''t been exported yet. When he saw the label of six bottles of wine put in front of Ye Chenyu... His eyes glowed uncontrollably. He didn''t have much good love in his life. I''m not interested in women except my wife. Power and money Red wine is a good heart, just like some people like antiques. Ye Chenyu''s move is six bottles, or there is no market in the market Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Qishan with evil spirits in his eyes, lowered his eyes, and smiled at the bottom of his eyes. Chen Qishan felt a little uncomfortable. On the one hand, he didn''t want to give ye Chenyu a good face. On the other hand, he looked at the red wine on the tea table and felt uncontrollable itching. If you want to touch it, it''s like scratching your heart with a cat''s paw "Don''t think you can ''bribe'' me with red wine, hum!" Chen Qishan didn''t go to see red wine and tried to draw his attention. "Compared with red wine, my daughter is priceless here!" "I agree..." Ye Chenyu smiled, "I''m here too!" "Hum!" Chen Qishan hummed again. He didn''t believe what ye Chenyu said. Of course, it has nothing to do with whether you believe it or not. In short, he won''t marry his daughter to him "I heard uncle likes playing go?" Ye Chenyu said, "how about the next set?" Go is Chen Qishan''s only hobby! Although he was not as obsessed as red wine, he was self-cultivation at that time. "Let''s not talk about Chen Yu first," said Ye Chenyu. "Uncle won and take these wine." "What if I lose?" Chen Qishan sneered. "Let''s talk about Chen Yu''s problem..." Ye Chenyu smiled and saw that Chen Qishan wanted to oppose. He took the lead in blocking his words, "uncle is an old chess player. He can''t, dare he?" Stir up the law! Chen Qishan knows very well. Unfortunately, he was excited. "I won," Chen Qishan said coldly. "I won''t want red wine. You leave Chen..." Ye Chenyu didn''t speak immediately. He didn''t expect that Chen Qishan was good at heart, but Chen Yu was persistent. After all, he didn''t say very full, he just said ''talk''! Of course, before he came, plus the last fight, he touched Chen Qishan He would make such a request. In fact, he is not surprised at all. "Should I say that if I win, you will marry Chen Yu to me?" Ye Chenyu fought against the army. "..." Chen Qishan was speechless for a moment. "Why," Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows, "Uncle thinks my request is unreasonable?" After a pause, his voice became slow, but there was a faint sneer, "or did Uncle face me, in fact, he was not sure of winning?" At the last blow, Chen Qishan had to say that the young man did a good job. Although he knew he was motivating him, he succeeded again. He has been playing go for more than ten years. He is also a member of the Los Angeles Go Association If ye Chenyu can''t get off, he really doesn''t have a fool. "Good!" Chen Qishan''s eyes sank. "I''d like to see. I didn''t learn and have no skills when I was a child. Later, I went undercover and became a gangster before I graduated from the police school... I finally returned to the police station and resigned within a few months. How did you win me and let me marry Chen Yu to you!" Ye Chenyu is not surprised that Chen Qishan will investigate him, and he really can''t play go! Not just go, he can''t play any chess Ye Chenyu suddenly raised his mobile phone, smiled at the corners of his mouth, and said with deep meaning: "I recorded what you just said..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± "I''m afraid you don''t have a chance to use it!" Chen Qishan sneered and got up to get the chessboard. "I brought the chessboard and chess pieces," Ye Chenyu received his mobile phone, "uncle, don''t bother." Hearing this, Chen Qishan sat down again. He doesn''t like to use go in the market very much. It''s uncomfortable to hold the texture in his hand. Today is mainly to send Ye Chenyu away. Naturally, he didn''t say much But when ye Chenyu took out the chessboard and pieces, the meat on Chen Qishan''s face twitched uncontrollably. Just at a glance, Chen Qishan saw that the chessboard was made of gold nanmu Black jade is used for sunspots and lanolin jade is used for whites! Let''s not say anything else. Just put these three materials together, the value is unpredictable If you add its year, it is a sky high price. Chen Qishan looked at Ye Chenyu and couldn''t hide his surprise. Whether it''s red wine or chessboard to chessboard Everything here is unaffordable by Ye Chenyu''s economy. "Uncle, please!" Ye Chenyu didn''t ignore Chen Qishan''s surprise, but smiled faintly. Chen Qishan takes back his mind and falls with a sunspot Ye Chenyu didn''t think about it and fell with a white son! The two started very fast. When the dense black and white people occupied one side on the chessboard and no one could capture the other side, the air gradually became dignified Chen Qishan is an old chess player. It can be said that from the momentum of Ye Chenyu''s chess playing, he is really not good at it. But his chess is treacherous, and every step can restrain him Suddenly In the space of Chen Qishan''s thought, the white son ate the big piece of sunspot! Chen Qishan looked at the pieces on the chessboard in amazement. His breathing began to be heavy and his heart beat faster. He suddenly looked at Ye Chenyu, "you cheat!" Chapter 1172 Ye Chenyu was stunned and immediately laughed. "Uncle, willing to gamble and admit defeat..." Chen Qishan wants to get angry, but he is a man with face. However, losing to a person who can''t play chess or losing his daughter, Chen Qishan naturally held a fire in his heart. "In fact, uncle knows very well that I didn''t cheat!" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows and said, looking at Chen Qishan, he didn''t avoid it at all. Of course, Chen Qishan knows. It is because he knows that he will be more angry. What he said was deception. Naturally, it was not ye Chenyu''s deception when playing chess. Instead, ye Chenyu made a special response to his chess style! "There is only one person in Los Angeles who can win me and study my chess way!" Chen Qishan''s eyes are about to burst into flames. Ye Chenyu nodded with approval, "indeed!" He didn''t deny it because he was the one who went to consult. "In fact, I''m still not good at this, but... It''s enough to win uncle today!" Ye Chenyu said, looking at Chen Qishan gradually deep. Since we want Chen Qishan to agree, of course, red wine is what he likes, while playing chess is both hard and soft. He forced Chen Qishan to make a promise first, and then beat him Naturally, there is one last step! "Also, uncle is most worried about..." Ye Chenyu said, glancing at the red wine and other things on the tea table. "Uncle thinks I really can''t afford Chen Chen?" The things on the table are not only valuable but also priceless! Chen Qishan used to say that ye Chenyu couldn''t feed Chen Yu. Now ye Chenyu is a little slapped in the face. Chen Qishan was angry, but he was unable to refute. They looked at each other, and the surrounding air gradually became condensed. Ye Chenyu was evil from beginning to end, but in a pair of eyes, he was completely serious. I don''t know how long I''ve been looking at each other. Chen Qishan is a little tired after a long time! Chen Qishan looked back and leaned on the sofa, "Ye Chenyu, you are really a character..." "Thank you, uncle!" Ye Chenyu didn''t blush at all and was not modest, because self-confidence was unnecessary. "I can give you Xiaoyu..." Chen Qishan looked at Ye Chenyu again, "but it''s not because I lost, do you understand?" Ye Chenyu nodded. "In the last fight, I was thinking about how you would convince me..." Chen Qishan smiled. "What you convinced me today is not these rare red wine, nor this difficult chessboard and chess pieces, but... Your intentions." When a man is willing to pay attention to women, it shows that he is serious. "How much time did it take to learn to play go against me?" Chen Qishan asked curiously. "Two all night..." Hearing this, Chen Qishan turned black. After all, he is an old chess player. Even if a newcomer studies him specifically, he will beat him with two overnight. Where does his face go?! But now where does Chen Qishan know that ye Chenyu''s mind and adaptability are the ability to draw inferences from various things when he was undercover these years. Endure, endure and endure Lao Chen finally put up with the blocked breath. "Uncle, these......" Ye Chenyu looked at the things on the table. "They are all filial piety to you." Chen Qishan glanced, and the daughter agreed to marry. If the wine doesn''t stay, he will suffer too much. Well, the chessboard or something is also left Don''t be vain, you can''t lose! Lao Chen''s heart is too blocked. He finds a reason for himself "Ye Chenyu, what is your identity?" Chen Qishan asked, "the value of these things is not small!" Ye Chenyu listened and said solemnly, "Oh, those red wines are taken from blues. I''m on credit... Before, Chen Yu told the boss to raise me. I''ll marry her later, and she''ll pay all the wine money I owe!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± As soon as Chen Qishan heard this, an old mouthful of blood was about to gush out. Ye Chenyu smiled and continued: "as for the chessboard and chess pieces... It''s a wedding gift given to us by a pregnant and idle matchmaker. Well, I paid in advance. Anyway, Chen Yu is going to marry me!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Qishan twitched at the corners of his mouth and felt like he was going to faint. He will agree, one is because he thinks Ye Chenyu is sincere enough, the other is that he can give Xiaoyu a good life But in the end, they are all bubbles! "Uncle, in fact, you don''t have to be too sad..." Ye Chenyu didn''t seem to see Chen Qishan''s anger. "After all, I''m better than anything to be good to Chen Chen and be attentive to her!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Qishan didn''t want to talk to Ye Chenyu. He stood up and looked at Ye Chenyu coldly, "it''s getting late. You can go..." He turned around and walked upstairs without paying attention to him. "Uncle, the wedding of Chen Yu and I is scheduled for next month..." Ye Chenyu got up and smiled at Chen Qishan''s back. Chen Qishan ignored Ye Chenyu, but his mouth was filled with a smile. exactly! Ye Chenyu caught his mind He wants to be good to Xiaoyu and be attentive to Xiaoyu! ¡­¡­ The morning in Ottawa came quietly in the mist. Gu Beichen strolled along the Lido canal, with a slight heaviness in his slow steps. Suddenly, a pigeon was startled by the morning runner The dove fluttered its wings and made a ''coo'' sound, disturbing the tranquility of the morning. Gu Beichen stopped and put his arm on the fence. His vision fell on the boat on the canal and gradually became deep. Xiao Yan really left Will his persistence and Mo''er become a burden on Xiao Yan? Don''t the old people always say that when people leave, if the living people keep thinking about it, they will drag the people who leave to think about the world and can''t get relief? Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and smiled at himself. It''s strange that he should think of such a thing! What might we do? People are greedy Just don''t think about it, but think about it. I think Xiao Yan has a chance to live... But in the end, it''s empty! The cell phone vibrated in its pocket. Gu Beichen gathered his mind and took out a text message sent by Jian mo. Mo''er: ah Chen, the little guy just kept kicking me in the stomach... Well, actually, I just want to say that I miss you and the little guy. Good night! Mo''er: Oh, no, it''s already morning there Connected with three text messages, the last is a picture of Jane Mo "kissing him" with her mouth. Gu Beichen smiled and his fingers flew on the screen: now I give you a bedtime wish. What will you want? Jane Mo lay on the bed, smiling and replied: I hope my manager is as charming and dynamic as the morning in Ottawa! Gu Beichen smiled. The smile reached the bottom of his eyes in an instant, and then spread: Naughty! Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and her mouth was full of smiles spoiled by Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen said good night to Jian Mo, took his cell phone and turned around Perhaps, people should not be too greedy. At least, he didn''t lose more But later Gu Beichen didn''t expect that he was not persistent today and missed Xiaoyan for many years! Chapter 1173 Chen Yu, look at the time. It''s already eleven o''clock in the evening She sighed darkly. She took her mobile phone and asked whether to call ye Chenyu? But think about it. If ye Chenyu is fighting with Lao Chen at the moment, she calls and works as a cheerleader for ye Chenyu, but Lao Chen is expected to walk away on the spot Think about it, forget it! When Lu Xiaowei came back from the bathroom, he saw Chen Yu looking thoughtful. "Chen Ju, I''ll be off work in an hour..." Lu Xiaowei also looked at the time. "Do you want to have a barbecue later? Shout brother Yu and Qiao Rui?" "I have something to do at night, so I won''t go..." Chen Yu said absently. Lu Xiaowei immediately rubbed his ambiguous face around Chen Yu, grinned and said, "Chen Ju, you''re right with brother Yu, so you abandoned our brothers who live and die together. Isn''t it kind?" "..." Chen Yu listened and squinted at Lu Xiaowei, "get out!" "Good luck!" Lu Xiaowei answered with a smiley face, "small, this is... Round roll!" After that, he learned the rolling posture and floated in circles to the position of the monitoring station Chen Yu looked at the way he was teased and forced, and pulled at the corners of his mouth. With the passage of time, Chen Yu''s heart became more and more bottomless. Ye Chenyu said to find his father at eight. It''s more than eleven o''clock. They haven''t finished talking, or have they finished talking?! When people are waiting for answers, they can''t meditate. Every time you wait a little longer, you will derive many problems from the original wishful thinking, and finally you can go crazy Chen Yu felt that after so much training, she was a calm person. But ye Chenyu was not calm. Now the stubborn old Chen of his family and the evil ruffian Ye Chenyu are facing each other. Chen Yu has a sense of "the baby''s heart is bitter". It''s about ten minutes before 12 o''clock. The person who handed over the night shift has come "Xiao Li, when you come, I''ll go first..." Chen Yu is uncomfortable waiting for another minute. "Xiao Wei, you and Xiao Li hand over the police record just now." With these words, Chen Yu has gone out "Ah!" Lu Xiaowei answered and looked curiously at Chen Yu, who was not calm. "Chen Ju..." Xiao Li suddenly remembered something and called Chen Yu back. But the figure had already left the door of the monitoring room. He could only say what he didn''t say angrily, "well, ye Chenyu is outside..." Chen Yu naturally didn''t hear it. She just hurried back to the office to change her private clothes. While going downstairs, she sent a text message to Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu leaned against the car and was smoking. His mobile phone "dripped" down. He took it out and sent it marked "little girl". Little girl: it''s been several hours. What happened to your fight with Lao Chen? Can''t you have detonated the atomic bomb?! Ye Chenyu smiled at the corners of his mouth, held the smoke obliquely in his mouth and replied to a text message: cold air is coming, need warmth! Chen Yu''s action of going downstairs stopped. Looking at Ye Chenyu''s reply, his heart suddenly became dignified. Little girl: my uncle is so poor. It''s all right. You have my little heater. Ye Chenyu''s eyes are getting darker: does it mean to warm me at night? ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth, and his face turned red in an instant. He didn''t think about how the people who fought with Lao Chen could reply to her text messages in such a free and timely manner. Little girl: what do you think all day long? Ye Chenyu took off the cigarette, spit out the cigarette ring, and then took it in his mouth: I just want you to hug me. What do you think? ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu helped his forehead and grinned secretly. He had already left the office building of the eastern district police station. Ye Chenyu looked up and saw Chen Yu staring at his mobile phone without noticing him at all. Smiled and shook his head. While ye Chenyu put out the smoke, he dialed Chen''s phone When the bell rang, Chen Yu stopped to answer the phone and asked, "how''s it going?" "Alas..." Ye Chenyu sighed. Chen Yu immediately frowned, "you are sighed. What''s the result?" Without waiting for ye Chenyu to answer, she said again, "haven''t you finished today? Don''t you still have time? Don''t talk..." "Problem, you don''t have a neutral position to talk to me!" Ye Chenyu spoke slowly. Hearing this, Chen Yu suddenly felt something was wrong. The sound seems to be not only in the mobile phone, but also nearby The pupil widened, Chen looked around, and finally his eyes fell on Ye Chenyu, who was smiling at her and shaking his mobile phone. "Why are you here?" Chen Yu wondered that the man had passed. "Come and pick you up from work..." Ye Chenyu''s eyes were deep. When Chen Yu came to her, he stopped her waist, rotated with the trend, and put her against the car body. With a soft cry of "ah", Chen Yu''s nose was instantly haunted with a faint smell of tobacco, and at the same time, it was filled with the evil smell of Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu looked at Chen''s eyes more and more deeply His body, almost without any gap, is close to Chen, especially ambiguous under the night. Chen''s heart beat faster and the air was full of hot smell, which made her cheeks red uncontrollably. Think of her as the overlord of the police force. She almost blushes easily in the face of Ye Chenyu in the crowd of men. She is also convinced of herself. "That..." Chen Shu drooped his eyes. "Did you have a bad talk with Lao Chen?" "Huh?" Ye Chenyu was light, and his body was pressed again. Chen Yu''s heart was'' popping '', and the whole person''s breath was not smooth because of his heartbeat. She raised her eyes and looked at Ye Chenyu. In the dark night, it was like the eyes of a prairie fire She swallowed involuntarily, and Chen''s first reaction was that she was about to "eat a sheep into a tiger''s mouth". After pushing Ye Chenyu, Chen Yu tried to break the ambiguity and said, "you haven''t told me what''s going on between you and Lao Chen?" "OK..." "What does it mean to be ok?" Chen Chen is angry. Ye Chenyu smiled evil, and his face deceived Chen for a few minutes. His breath gushed out from his nose. With heat, he spread it on Chen''s face "Chen Chen, are you particularly worried about not being able to marry me?" Ye Chenyu asked with a smile, "huh?" Chen Chen''s heart and liver are about to be touched by Ye Chenyu''s actions and his hoarse voice Doesn''t this man know that it''s shameful to use the "beautiful man trick"?! "I..." Ye Chenyu didn''t wait for Chen to speak. Two lips had fallen on the corner of her mouth. The tip of her tongue stretched out badly and picked Chen''s lip flap. Just when Chen Chen''s heart missed a beat, ye Chenyu felt her body freeze in her arms. As her eyes deepened, her teeth filled Chen Chen''s lower lip and gently bit it "Little girl, I said to take care of your old Chen tonight, not just talking..." Chapter 1174 Chen Yu suddenly raised his eyes, and his small face was red to hot because of Ye Chenyu''s behavior. But the line of sight, however, looked at Ye Chenyu fiercely and tightly. Ye Chenyu bent his fingers and gently knocked on Chen Yu''s forehead. In his voice, he said with a smile: "why, I''m so happy?" Chen Yu was angry and wrinkled his nose. He gritted his teeth angrily and asked, "since it''s done, what did you just say about the cold and sigh?" "Say it''s cold..." Ye Chenyu pinched Chen Yu''s cheek, and his voice had an undisguised desire. "I just want you to take the initiative to hug me... Besides, it''s autumn. In the evening, I''ve been waiting for you downstairs for almost an hour, and the cold is normal... Didn''t you see the weather forecast? The cold air is coming!" "You deliberately mislead me..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth and found that he could say something reasonable or not. Ye Chenyu could say a flower. "What about the sigh?" Chen Chen gritted his teeth and said in his eyes, "I see how you can say a flower.". Ye Chenyu sighed again, "my silly girl hates to marry and loses her calmness. She not only doesn''t find that I reply to text messages very quickly, but even when I leave the office building, I don''t see... My sense of existence is so low. Shouldn''t she sigh?" "..." Chen Yu shrunk his lower corner of his mouth, "what you said is so reasonable that I have nothing to say..." "Should you make it up to me?" Ye Chenyu''s voice is a little hoarse. Chen Yu widened his eyes, "what compensation?" "I''ve been waiting for you so long... Cold, and you ignore me..." Ye Chenyu said solemnly, "shouldn''t you comfort me?" When it comes to the word "comfort", ye Chenyu gently rubs Chen''s soft lips with his thumb. Even, his body pressed on Chen Yu again. It felt like a big gray wolf staring at a little sheep "..." Chen Chen''s face turned red again. She stared and gritted her teeth and asked, "Ye Chenyu, what are you full of?" "It''s all you!" Ye Chenyu answered like a stream, and the evil charm in his voice was tempting. Chen Yu''s brain suddenly crashed! She can even hear her heart beating like thunder Although she thought Ye Chenyu''s sentence "it''s all you" was very likely, the next sentence was very rogue. Can not be controlled, she is filled with pink bubbles in her heart. This is the feeling of love?! "Uncle Ye..." Chen Shu lowered his eyes and shouted softly. Ye Chenyu shook his head spoiled and sighed in his heart: Chen Yu now knows how to catch him! "Huh?" Ye Chenyu asked softly. Chen Shuo said, "I''m worried about the result of your talk with Lao Chen. I didn''t eat in the afternoon. I''m hungry now..." "Alas!" Ye Chenyu sighed, but it was not hard to hear the smell of doting. Chen Yu raised her eyes. "I''m in your heart..." she blinked, and the apricot eyes of shuilingling flickered like colored glass. "Do you want to feed me first?" Ye Chenyu was originally a wolf who had been abstinent for many years. Originally, he just teased Chen Yu. But at the moment, he is carrying a stone to hit himself in the foot Look at Chen''s small eyes and listen to her soft waxy voice like a feather scratching her heart He doesn''t call her Ye Chenyu if he doesn''t feed her! "Hey, Chen Yu, get up and peck at the door first..." Chen Yu said. When the door closed, I heard a whistle upstairs. Ye Chenyu raised his eyes and Lu Xiaowei waved to him with a grin. "Brother Yu," said Lu Xiaowei with a smile, "although it''s late at night, I can do things that are not suitable for children in the police yard. Shall I ask the anti pornography side to invite you to have tea with Chen bureau? It''s too bad for weathering..." "Are you a child?" Ye Chenyu said softly, then nodded, "yes, so many things have not been done. You really have only as many IQ as children!" "..." Lu Xiaowei smiled and choked. Ye Chenyu looked at Lu Xiaowei''s rigid face and asked, "go back and introduce an eye drops for you..." "What are you doing?" Lu Xiaowei couldn''t react. "My eyes are all right?!" "After watching for so long, are you sure you don''t have needle eyes at night?" "..." Lu Xiaowei opened his mouth and the whole person was not well. "Brother Yu, I''ll just see you flirt with your sister. As for that poisonous tongue Turn around, Ye Yu, go to the driver''s seat, smile, go to the driver''s seat. Chen Chen nestled in his seat and wanted to find a crack in the ground Ye Chenyu didn''t pierce Chen Yu''s embarrassment at the moment, so he drove away from the east district police station. "What would you like to eat?" Ye Chenyu asked. Chen Chen''s face flushed. Hearing Ye Chenyu''s question, he looked at him with some stupidity Ye Chenyu looked at the silly girl and sighed. Without asking, he drove to the most famous Hualin night market in Los Angeles. Chen has never been to such a place. In Los Angeles. Because of her childhood, she was very lonely and cold. Naturally, she didn''t make any friends. And the people around us are all from rich families. They certainly won''t come here After entering the public security university and finally participating in international training, there will be no opportunity and time. But ye Chenyu is different. When he was undercover, he mostly wandered in the place where Yunlong was mixed. Naturally, he knows better than anyone what delicious food there is. Watching Chen Yu eat happily, ye Chenyu is also very happy to "serve". "Eat more, well, this is also good... Come on!" Ye Chenyu made a fuss. Chen Chen ate happily and said, "do you feed pigs?" "Your physique, saying you are a pig, insulted the pig!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu glared at Ye Chenyu and continued to eat. Ye Chenyu smiled and continued to make delicious food for Chen. One is willing to work and the other is willing to eat. It''s just right. "Good support..." At the end of the meal, Chen Yu felt that his mouth enjoyed it, but his stomach suffered. "It''s all right. I''ll exercise with you later and digest..." Ye Chenyu said. "Yes." Chen Yu answered without much thought. But when she knew that ye Chenyu''s so-called "Sports" was a sport that two people met frankly, she was very angry... Opened her mouth and took a hard bite on Ye Chenyu''s shoulder. Ye Chenyu was driving straight in. He was bitten by Chen Yu, his body trembled, and his blood gas rushed to his brain I''m so excited. I''ll tell you! What is joy and sorrow?! What is capsizing in the gutter?! What do you mean you can''t eat hot tofu in a hurry?! At this moment, ye Chenyu simply interpreted these words Chen Chen was stunned at first. Then he knew what had happened and burst out laughing uncontrollably. Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu with a smile that didn''t give face, and his face was black "Uncle Ye," said Chen, looking at Ye Chenyu in a bad way, "in the future, I''ll call you brother three seconds?!" Chapter 1175 Men, everything can be questioned, but that ability can not be questioned. Especially in front of women Ye Chenyu''s face was as black as the bottom of the pot. Looking at Chen Yu''s sight, it was also cloudy. Now the criminals laugh at him?! Thinking of this, ye Chenyu''s face darkened again. Chen Yu didn''t feel Ye Chenyu''s mistake at all, and his smile became more and more uncontrollable. The whole person under Ye Chenyu began to tremble because he couldn''t stop laughing. "Say it again?" Ye Chenyu is very angry. Chen Yu didn''t react yet. He exclaimed that he had been turned over by Ye Chenyu The palm of his hand fell on him, and Chen was ashamed and angry. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen was reading a financial magazine. In the first class cabin, there was an occasional sound of chatting, mixed with the sound of heavy breathing from someone sleeping. After watching it for a while, Gu Beichen was in no mood. He closed the magazine, asked the flight attendant for a glass of red wine and emptied himself. When I looked sideways, I inadvertently glanced at the man. He was sketching... And the character was him! Gu Beichen frowned. The man seemed to feel Gu Beichen looking at him, but he didn''t stop the action in his hand and continued to draw. When the flight attendant brought the wine, the man just stopped He pulled the sketch from the picture book and handed it to Gu Beichen. "Art student?" Gu Beichen asked casually. The man smiled and shook his head. "Hobbies!" "The painting is very good..." Gu Beichen looked down. He has minor in architectural design. Although it is different from painting, he also has strict requirements for many lines They all rely on strokes. There are similarities and differences. Naturally, he can see the skill of this person. Just It was clearly painted that he was reading a magazine, but the magazine didn''t. It just outlined an illusory outline. "What do you want this painting to express?" Gu Beichen asked and looked at the man. "You don''t have a micro expression, but the posture of taking the magazine from you is an absent-minded, even something in your heart, trying to cover up..." the man said calmly. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, and the ink pupil became deep, "study psychology This time, it is doubt, but it is also affirmation. The man shrugged, "Hello, ye Haoyang!" Ye Haoyang stretched out his hand and Gu Beichen looked down at him, but he didn''t shake hands with him. "Psychology itself is a science that studies human psychological phenomena, spiritual functions and behaviors..." Gu Beichen raised his eyes and looked at ye Haoyang. "It''s not used to peep at others." Ye Haoyang withdrew his hand, "President Gu refused to shake hands with me because I guessed your mind and formed a subconscious sense of self-protection..." "Oh?" Gu Beichen smiled, but that kind of smile stiffened in the corners of his mouth and never spread a penny. "It''s not so much that I''m a self-protection consciousness. Why don''t you think that you and I are not people on the same level, and I don''t need to detour with you?" A rhetorical question showed arrogance. Even, vaguely, with a trace of irony. Gu Beichen''s identity and saying such words will not make people feel arrogant. Because he has the ability to be arrogant. Ye Haoyang raised his eyebrows. "In fact, I said it, or president Gu thought it. President Gu knew it very well..." Deep words, deep smiles Ye Haoyang nodded slightly, didn''t say anything, took back his sight and continued to draw with the picture book. Gu Beichen didn''t pay attention to him anymore. He just looked down, looked at the sketch, then folded it up, put it into the storage bag, and looked out of the small window When the plane arrived in Los Angeles, it was the local morning. On a bright autumn morning, the air was mixed with a trace of moisture because of the cooling. Gu Beichen drove to Gu''s manor When she got home, Jane Mo had got up and was walking in the yard with Cen Lanxi. The mother-in-law and daughter-in-law didn''t know what to say. Jane Mo smiled, and Cen Lanxi kept gesturing because of her expression. Gu Beichen stood in front of the car and looked at the two women with him on their side. A thin smile spilled over their thin lips. "Eh?!" Suddenly, Jane Mo was surprised. She turned around and looked at the people standing in the parking lot. First, she thought she was wrong. When she was sure it was Gu Beichen, Jane Mo just said, "ah Chen is back..." Without waiting for Cen Lanxi''s reaction, he had held his waist in one hand and walked to Gu Beichen Gu Beichen stepped forward to meet Jian mo. He took her round waist and gently kissed her on the forehead. "Why do you get up so early?" "These two days, the little guy is very naughty and can''t sleep well..." Jane Mo didn''t say, because she was used to Gu Beichen being around every day and formed a habit. She couldn''t sleep very much these two days. "In addition, the air on this side of the manor is very good. Parents get up early and take a walk..." Jian Mo smiled into a crescent moon and looked at Gu Beichen. "Ah Chen, J will get a program topic with the professor in two days. He will stay in school for a few days... Why don''t we stay in the manor for a few days?" At the right time, cen Lanxi came over and just heard Jian Mo''s words. She listened to the footsteps and looked pleased. But also because Jane Mo is good and considerate, she feels more ashamed of her original opposition Son''s choice is right! Chapter 1176 "Little lazy pig, get up..." after ye Chenyu made breakfast, he went into the bedroom and called Chen Yu. Chen Yu groaned in his nose, turned over and continued to sleep. Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu, who was too tired, and felt some remorse. Last night, in order to recover his face, he really tossed Chen Yu for a long time "If you don''t get up again, I guess you''ll be late!" Ye Chenyu, look at the time. "I don''t eat, but I can sleep for another 20 minutes..." Chen said softly. In his voice, he obviously shouted ''I''m so sleepy''! Ye Chenyu looked at the time and said painfully, "OK, just sleep for another 20 minutes..." Chen Yu didn''t answer, but his breath became even again Ye Chenyu knew that she was really tired. After all, when people are happy, their emotions will become weak due to the sequelae of excitement. And training tired, is different. Twenty minutes later, ye Chenyu called Chen Yu again. This time, she knew there was no time to stay in bed Holding his eyes almost closed, Chen Shu washed and heard Ye Chenyu say, "I''ll take you to work later." "Your detective agency and I are in the opposite direction... I''ll just take a taxi." Chen Yu said softly. Ye Chenyu picked it up last night. Her car is still in the police station. Ye Chenyu didn''t refute, but when Chen changed her clothes and went out, he took her to the parking lot. Seeing that he didn''t take her opinion as a reference, Chen Yu also let Ye Chenyu send it. "Here, eat!" Ye Chenyu handed the bag in his hand to Chen Yu sitting on the co pilot. Chen opened it. There was porridge packed in a lunch box, two milk flavored steamed buns and some cold dishes. Chen Yu was immediately warm in her heart. She looked at Ye Chenyu and said with a smile, "can you cook?" "Isn''t that great?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. "Do you know what a good man you''ve caught?" Ye Chenyu, who stinks fart, is full of evil smell. "Narcissism..." Chen Zhen snorted and smiled sweetly. "Girl, I''m a rich woman and a beautiful woman. I''ll raise you. Of course you have to serve me well!" "I can go to bed and fight, I can cook, I can handle my stomach, I can beat hooligans, I can work as a rival in love, and I can fix Lao Chen..." Ye Chenyu was unwilling to show weakness. Seeing that Chen Chen couldn''t stand it, he leaned over to Chen''s ear and said vaguely, "it can also make you happy to beg for mercy!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu''s face is red again! "Ye Chenyu!" Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu, his eyes full of doting, smiled, rubbed her head and started the car Chen Yu giggled as he ate. It''s the sweetest breakfast, but it''s the same as Mingfa''s. Of course, it doesn''t matter to be tired. She doesn''t mind After taking a bite of the milk flavored steamed bread, Chen Yu looks at Ye Chenyu driving. She knew that in order to let her sleep for another 20 minutes, he sent her, mainly to let her eat breakfast on the way. He seems to have guessed her. When he gets to the police station, he won''t have breakfast again. With such carefulness and intimacy, Chen Yu felt that the most perfect thing she did in her life was to fall in love with this man And this man also belongs to her! I don''t know whether ye Chenyu''s speed is accurate or what. When he arrived at the police station, Chen was finished eating. Chen Yu wiped his mouth, took a small mirror and came out to fill his lipstick. "I just came to pick you up in the evening. There are some things." Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu and said, "also, your old Chen has finished. When will you finish your future mother-in-law?" Chen Yu stopped, smiled and asked, "weekend?" "Tomorrow night..." Ye Chenyu suggested. "But I''m not ready!" "The ugly daughter-in-law always wants to see her mother-in-law..." Chen Yu thought for a moment, and a woman picked her chin. "OK!" Paused, "I''ll take my future mother-in-law tomorrow night, and then we''ll go to Kangzhuang Avenue together!" Ye Chenyu smiled and pinched Chen Yu''s nose. "There are three minutes left, you will be late..." Chen Yu grinned, hurriedly packed up his lipstick and small mirror, put them in his bag, and hurriedly opened the door, "Uncle Ye, bye..." Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu''s figure, smiled and shook his head, started the car and left. He left, but Chen was "blocked" by the director of the Eastern District who just arrived! "Xiao Chen, pay attention to the influence!" Chen Yu blushed. "Director, do you think ye Chenyu can make people pay attention to the influence?" The director of the eastern district was stunned and laughed immediately. "Indeed..." the director of the East District paused and entered the police station building with Chen. "There is news from the general administration. The specially invited criminal psychology experts will come in the afternoon. You are all in this regard. Lu Bureau means that you cooperate with this case. The case in the South District should be sorted out and sent over early." Chen Yu nodded, "OK!" They went upstairs together. Xu was really tired last night, and Chen was depressed all morning. At lunch, Chen Yu and ye Chenyu took a short breath and expressed her strong dissatisfaction Ye Chenyu replied: daughter-in-law, you have to keep the empty boudoir alone tonight. I just let you enjoy it in advance, so as to save you from being empty and lonely tonight. It''s so cold that you don''t even have a aftertaste. Chen Yu grinned: bah! Ye Chenyu looked at the short breath and said one word, as if he could see Chen Yu''s expression from this word. With a smile, ye Chenyu replied: you should understand a man who has been hungry and thirsty for many years. After all, you are too easy to lead people to crime! Chen Yu held the dish in his hand. Seeing that ye Chenyu was full of reverie messages, he was surprised that the dish fell off. The people of the criminal police team who were eating at one side looked at Chen Yu and smiled vaguely at the bottom of their eyes. "At first glance, I was in love with brother Yu..." Lu Xiaowei said immediately. Everyone nodded clearly. Chen Yu indulged in Ye Chenyu''s "hooligans" and was so angry that he gnashed his teeth: you are such a Ye Chenyu! I really misunderstood you! Ye Chenyu''s eyes darkened: little girl, where do you want to go again because your mind is not simple? Chen Yu only felt that he had been hit hard by a flash of lightning Ye Chenyu is intentional. He always guides her indiscriminately, but he says that she thinks wrong! Chen Yu has suffered internal injuries, but because she was in the police canteen, she tried to bear it and maintained her good image as a young leader. After receiving his mobile phone, Chen began to eat. She decided that she would not take the initiative to talk to Ye Chenyu until she went to see ye Chenyu''s mother tomorrow It always seems that her IQ is negative after falling in love! She is a top student. Does the police force overlord flower have any?! Why has it become the life of being molested now Chen Yu can''t figure it out. He can only turn grief and anger into appetite! Chen Yu didn''t reply after sending a text message. He took the car key, left the detective agency and drove to the bar street Some of the music in the day is deafening, but some of the music in the night is deafening. Ye Chenyu is very familiar with such places. When he was undercover, he didn''t spend much time in such places. "Brother Yu, come!" Ye Chenyu looked at the giggling yellow hair, "where''s brother water?" "Waiting for you inside!" Ye Chenyu made a sound and went to the box where brother Shui often stayed. Brother Shui is a 40 year old man who doesn''t know a few words. He used to be a migrant worker. Later, he was bullied ruthlessly, so he went to fish for the wrong door. However, he is different from other people who make mistakes. He just opened two bars and did some needlework Not bad, but also very loyal. I didn''t help Ye Chenyu before! "Ah Yu, I''m going to make a big deal this time..." As soon as brother Shui saw Ye Chenyu, his eyes were as bright as his own father. "If you haven''t left the police station, I won''t find you. Now you open your own detective agency, you must help me." meanwhile. Chen Yu listened to the people at the bottom talking about the case handed over by the south district. "The man initially locked in the south district is a man named ''brother Shui''..." Chapter 1177 Chen Yu took the file and said, "let me have a look first..." "OK, Chen Ju, I''ll go out first." "Yes." Chen Ying answered and opened the file. Some time ago, a very special case occurred in the south district. It was analyzed that the perpetrator had psychological problems. Therefore, the perpetrator specially selected girls around the age of 20 with ear Bobo hairstyle to commit the crime. Chen has heard about this before and has analyzed the crime psychology Looking at the cases handed over, Chen Yu looked at the victims and gradually frowned. About 20 years old is the best age for girls. Nowadays, if psychological counseling is not enough, it will basically be destroyed. Xu Shi had a nightmare experience. When he met such a thing, Chen Yu was a little heavy. ¡­¡­ Ye Chenyu listened to brother Shui''s words of a rake in the East and a hammer in the West while smoking a cigarette. He frowned slightly. "Brother Shui, say the point!" Hearing this, ye Chenyu had a headache. Brother Shui is a big old man. He is loyal to others, but he can''t change some disadvantages caused by his lack of culture For example, language organization ability! "I''m worried..." brother Shui grinned down his big mouth and scratched his head, "here''s the thing..." Brother Shui said things again. Seeing that ye Chenyu seemed to understand, he said bitterly, "this is also internal news. Anyway, I am now suspected." "Did you do that?" Ye Chenyu opened his mouth lightly and leaned over to put out the cigarette butt. "Shit, of course not!" Brother Shui immediately jumped to his feet and stood up. "Shit, my daughter is 16 this year. I hide it like a baby. I care about it... Can I go to someone else''s daughter?" If it''s brother Shui, ye Chenyu doesn''t believe it. This man is rough, but he won''t do those things that lose his conscience Of course, there are occasional fights. After all, the opening is. "I''ll check this," Ye Chenyu motioned to brother Shui to sit down. "But now I''m self reliant. I can say in advance, help! Money, no discount..." "OK, OK, I know you want to marry and have a wife..." brother Shui is upset at the moment. "As long as you pull out the people who want to hold the shit basin from me, there will be a lot of labor and capital money for you!" "OK, I''ll take the cooperation contract back and sign it for you..." Ye Chenyu said, putting down his overlapping legs and getting ready to get up. "Fuck, labor and capital are illiterate. You don''t know. What do you write back? I can understand it?" Brother Shui spit, "don''t you laugh at me?!" Ye Chenyu smiled and patted brother Shui on the shoulder. "Tease you..." he got up, "OK, I''ll go first." "Hey?" Brother Shui also stood up, "you can''t help your woman with this!" The news on the road is still very well informed. Ye Chenyu left the police force. People who care about the wind direction are naturally aware of the recent proximity with Chen Yu. "The case in the south district is not in her charge..." Ye Chenyu was a little helpless. "Besides, you didn''t ask me to cover up your crime. Are you afraid of a bird Paused, "or do you actually do it, and you want to cover it up with me?" "Shit..." Brother Shui suddenly lost his temper and kicked Ye Chenyu Of course, he can''t kick it. Ye Chenyu left the bar after 3 pm In response to the cold air, the weather was overcast and the wind was a little cold. Brother Shui called Chen when he was making breakfast for him in the morning. In the morning, at the detective agency, he checked some social reports about these things. Many parents caused panic and changed their children''s hair style He decided to step on the south side tonight. Ye Chenyu went back to the detective agency, took the map of the Southern District, circled several crime sites, and then listed the various characteristics of the victim in an attempt to find some clues At the same time, Chen Zhen combed all the cases and listed the characteristics of the victims. She turned on the computer, transferred several places involved from the police station intranet and commented separately. If ye Chenyu started by relying on his practice over the years Chen Yu, at the moment, is starting from an expert in Criminology and psychology! "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." Chen Yu did not leave the computer, but connected several crime sites with drawing tools. "Chen Bureau, here comes the specially invited psychologist..." Chen Chen made a sound, but his eyes did not leave the computer. Ye Haoyang motioned to the policeman who led him in. The policeman nodded and left without reminding Chen. Ye Haoyang sat down in his chair and his eyes fell on the paper of the summary just written by Chen Yugang on the desk. After a while, Chen did not find any connection point from the location. He scratched his forehead with a pen and turned the chair. When she saw ye Haoyang, she was stunned first, and then said apologetically: "sorry, I just thought about the problem and was distracted..." "It doesn''t matter." Ye Haoyang smiled. "Ye Haoyang, come back for a lecture and be invited to cooperate with the case first." Chen Yu was stunned when he heard that his surname was ye I don''t know if ye Chenyu lowered his head. How can you get confused when you hear the surname ye?! "Hello, Chen Yu!" "Yes, the backbone of the police system trained by the Ministry of public security..." ye Haoyang''s voice showed a trace of deep meaning. Chen Pei raised his eyebrow, "focus on training, but also have this ability to be trained!" "Yes, so I heard it without seeing you." Ye Haoyang''s voice was obviously relaxed. He gently clicked the paper written by Chen Yu with his chin, "can you have a look?" "Of course..." Chen Zhen gave ye Haoyang her summary and the file, "What did you find?" Ye Haoyang looked at the file and asked. Chen Yu said what he had found and guessed. Ye Haoyang nodded with obvious appreciation in his eyes. They talked about the case and soon it was time to get off work. "I haven''t returned home for many years. Do you mind inviting me to dinner?" Ye Haoyang put down the file and looked at Chen Yu with a smile. Chen Yu thought that ye Chenyu had something to do in the evening, and she also had time. "It should be..." paused. "The director explained that you are a specially invited expert, so you should naturally do your best as a host." Ye Haoyang''s smile deepened. "You have a subconscious sense of distance from me." "I always have a sense of distance for men who want to approach deliberately and have a private purpose..." Chen did not refute. Ye Haoyang lowered his eyes and shook his head with a smile. "No wonder two psychology students can''t get together..." he raised his eyes. "Professional instinct. They all like to guess each other''s psychology from each other''s tone and action." Chen Shu shrugged his shoulders and made no comment. Chapter 1178 "Do you mind what to eat?" Chen asked. "Western food is too much. Eat something with domestic characteristics..." ¡°OK£¡¡± Chen turned the computer screen and pointed to a place in the guide area. "There is an open-air barbecue street here, which will meet you!" Ye Haoyang couldn''t laugh or cry. "You have to squeeze the labor force after work..." Chen zhe raised his eyebrows, smiled, got up, took his bag, and left the police station with ye Haoyang. This place mentioned by Chen Yu is not the crime site, but there are several large communities nearby. There are a lot of people coming and going back every day, and eating in the barbecue stand and looking for adventure is really the best place. There was a long distance between the east district police station and the barbecue street in the south district. In addition, there was a traffic jam during the rush hour. When they arrived at the place, it was already two hours later, and it was dark. Barbecue street is very lively. The air is full of cumin and chili noodles, with the smell of food baked by fire. "I miss..." ye Haoyang felt it. "You can choose to stay at home." Ye Haoyang looked at Chen Yu. "Are you keeping me on behalf of the police station?" Chen Yu tilted his head to the sight of upper ye Haoyang and smiled at the corners of his mouth, but he didn''t lose heart at all. "You think too much... I don''t have much desire for talents. After all, I''m a talent!" "..." ye Haoyang took a swipe at the corners of his mouth. According to his understanding, Chen Yu should not be such a character At least, you can be proud when you talk, but it''s not that kind of arrogance! To put it bluntly, it''s evil! They don''t know who''s delicious in this street. They just find a home with a good view and sit down Chen Yu skillfully lit the barbecue and asked for a pot of health preserving boiled rice wine. "In this cooling day, drinking boiled rice wine and eating barbecue kebabs are the most beautiful..." "You don''t seem to know the people here!" "You study psychology, not perspective... How can you see through my character?" "..." ye Haoyang choked again. What Chen Yu said was unintentional. To put it bluntly, he was brought into the ditch by Ye Chenyu. Poisonous tongue! "Sorry..." Chen Yu was embarrassed. "It''s all right. I just think you''re different from what I know... I''m a little curious." Ye Haoyang really didn''t mind. He just looked at Chen Yu with obvious examination. "Don''t be curious, I have a boyfriend!" Chen Yu was half joking. "Ye Chenyu?!" Chen Yu was not surprised that ye Haoyang knew and nodded. "It''s quite a coincidence. You''re all surnamed Ye!" "Yes, it''s a coincidence..." ye Haoyang''s voice was meaningful. However, in due course, the boss brought up the yellow rice wine cooked with rock sugar, medlar and other things, but Chen didn''t pay attention. The two men chatted while eating barbecue and drinking health yellow rice wine, which was almost full boiled. After being with Ye Chenyu, Chen obviously became cheerful. Apart from the others, the two people naturally have many common topics because of cases and psychology. Ye Haoyang is a funny person. With his unique insight and opinions, he adjusts Chen Yu''s mood very well Ye Chenyu sat in the car, holding a fast-food box in his hand. While eating, he tried to corona ye Haoyang with strong radio waves His little girl is really unwilling to be lonely. He didn''t have time at night, so she asked a man, a man with small fresh meat, to have a barbecue?! From the east to the south, I ran a long way Thinking of this, ye Chenyu stuffed a mouthful of rice into his mouth and chewed it. It was like eating ye Haoyang''s meat. Ye Chenyu''s eyes were poisoned. After looking at ye Haoyang coldly, he looked at the smiling Chen Yu. He had a kind of desire to go down and pull the woman to the car, and immediately overwhelmed the impulse to punish her. In the face of little fresh meat smiling so brightly, Chen Yu, I think you''re itching Of course, impulse is the devil. Don''t say that he is here to investigate. In private, he naturally doesn''t want Chen to have no face and no right to make friends. But the truth is, I''m angry ¡­¡­ Chen Yu didn''t know that ye Chenyu was nearby. The main reason was that she didn''t expect that ye Chenyu would "partner" with her in the first case after she left the police station. She didn''t expect that ye Chenyu naturally didn''t expect that the case in the south district was handed over to the East District! "Did you find anything?" Chen Yu''s beautiful eyes swept around inadvertently. "If you find anything like this, how anxious is that person''s IQ?" Ye Haoyang said with a smile. Chen Yu nodded, "also..." The two people looked as if they were chatting. In fact, from beginning to end, they were transmitting information in chatting. With the passage of time, the barbecue street is becoming more and more lively, especially after 89 PM, every stall is full. Ye Chenyu is busy studying the map while holding the tablet and writing and drawing on the book with a pen. He also has to "monitor" Chen. The lunch box was not finished. It was left on the workbench alone. It was already cold. After completing tonight''s task, ye Chenyu left his tablet and book on the co pilot''s seat, and his sight never left Chen Yu again It''s a coincidence. In just ten minutes, Chen Yu and ye Haoyang are ready to go. Because the parking position of Ye Chenyu''s car and Chen''s car are just staggered in two directions. From beginning to end, Chen didn''t find Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu rubbed his eyebrows, some thoughtful. Because he found a problem Chen Yu had some fresh meat tonight. He didn''t ask him if he had dinner at night? What to eat? Ye Chenyu looked serious, took the fast food box, opened the door, threw it into the dustbin and started the car This is the taste. You can''t be taken away by other wolves! ¡­¡­ After leaving barbecue street, Chen Yu and ye Haoyang didn''t go home directly, but walked around nearby. "Do you think this person''s criminal psychology is specific?" Chen asked. Ye Haoyang looked out of the window, as if he were meditating, and as if his thoughts were wandering. He didn''t answer Chen Yu. Chen Yu looked at him and didn''t speak After a long time, ye Haoyang slowly said: "about 20 years old, Bobo hairstyle... It seems to have something in common, but it is also easy to confuse people." Chen Yu agreed that she felt common when she read the case file in the afternoon, but she didn''t think so just when she was at the barbecue stand with ye Haoyang. "Where do you live? I''ll take you back first..." "Good!" Ye Haoyang looked at the time. It was really late and said the address of the hotel. After seeing ye Haoyang off, Chen Yu went back to his apartment and walked around. It was already midnight when he got home. He was tossed by Ye Chenyu into the middle of the night last night. As soon as Chen Yu relaxed, the whole person softened. With a ''ding'', the elevator arrived at the floor. While looking for the key, Chen Yu walked out of the elevator Suddenly! A man came over with a predatory nature. Chen Chen instinctively reacted. While his body flashed, he kicked his feet and greeted him. The other party raised his arm and blocked Chen''s retreat. Following the trend, he moved very quickly. Without giving Chen the slightest chance, he grabbed her wrist and turned it over, which had put her against the wall Chapter 1179 Several movements are slow to say, but they are moving in clouds and water, but in an instant. Chen Yu didn''t see the person clearly. In a sense of crisis, she lifted her knee and pushed into the man''s crotch The man turned sideways, and then a low voice came from gritting his teeth "Why, murder your husband?!" Ye Chenyu''s voice was joking, "the top is broken. You''ll see how cool you are in the future!" Full of ambiguous words, Chen Chen''s original concentration was relaxed in an instant. With a pair of beautiful eyes, he looked at Ye Chenyu, who didn''t look very good. "I can find someone else..." Chen Yu joked. As soon as ye Chenyu heard this, his face was as black as the dark ink outside. He has been waiting here for nearly two hours! Chen Yu and the little fresh meat left the barbecue street and went to another program?! Chen Yu didn''t know what he was joking about. He just hit Ye Chenyu''s heart at the moment. She just let him put her against the wall and asked with a smile, "didn''t you say you had something to do tonight? Why did you come here?" "If I don''t come, you can hook up?" Ye Chenyu''s breath is sour. Chen Chen didn''t react to the meaning of Ye Chenyu''s words for a while. He crashed in his mind and just reflected what he meant by "looking for someone else". "How about the little fresh meat?" Ye Chenyu asked with ease. But what he asked seemed very relaxed, but he didn''t know he was jealous. Chen Yu gently fanned his eyes and looked at Ye Chenyu. Suddenly, he burst out laughing. Ye Chenyu''s face is not very good and darker. "Uncle Ye, do you smell it?" Chen Yu picked his eyebrows and smiled. Ye Chenyu frowned, "huh?" Chen Yu forgot the lesson of last night. He smiled at the corners of his mouth and said, "I don''t know who turned over the vinegar bottle... What a sour taste!" Ye Chenyu''s eyes sank. Looking at the cunning smile on Chen''s face, his eyes were full of dangerous breath Chen Yu was stunned at the sight of Shang Ye Chenyu. "Ye... Eh!" Before Chen Yu''s warning words could be exported, ye Chenyu leaned down and kissed her lips It''s more like biting than kissing, with punitive. Chen Chen''s throat was purring and wanted to push Ye Chenyu away. Unfortunately, the more she pushed, the tighter Ye Chenyu hugged. Because of his strength, Chen Yu felt that he was about to be rubbed into his body Gradually, Chen Yu lost his calmness from being able to resist to being stirred by Ye Chenyu''s overbearing kiss. He could only let him do whatever he wanted under the condition of lack of oxygen. Chen Yu felt that he could hardly breathe Ye Chenyu''s punishment kiss, like a strong wind, swept through her consciousness and drained her. Feeling that Chen Yu was unable to resist, ye Chenyu slowly released Chen Yu. He looked at Chen Yu with a flame in his eyes. His eyes were deep and his voice became hoarse because of the hot kiss: "little girl, if you don''t teach you a lesson, you''re going to turn the sky?! huh?" Chen Yu breathed heavily. After a while, he gradually calmed down. She looked at Ye Chenyu with grievances in her eyes, and her voice was muttering: "did you also go to the barbecue street in the South District?" Ye Haoyang is only 28 years old. In addition, he looks tender. In Ye Chenyu''s eyes, isn''t he a little fresh meat?! Ye Chenyu didn''t speak Chen Yu lowered his eyes more wrongfully and said in a dissatisfied voice, "you don''t believe me..." Five words seemed to bear the great sadness. The feeling of crying made Ye Chenyu a little flustered at once. "I didn''t say I didn''t believe you..." "But you came here to question me and bully me!" Chen Yu continued to accuse and looked up at Ye Chenyu''s line of sight, a little red. Ye Chenyu completely forgot what he was still angry about. He rubbed Chen Yu''s cheek with his fingers and hurriedly said, "aren''t I nervous about you? Think about it, the meat can''t be all in my bowl. Was it taken away by a wild wolf at last? Tell me, I''m grateful, isn''t it?" Chen Shuo''s lips and face are still full of grievances. Ye Chenyu held Chen Yu in his arms and sighed: "well, I''m wrong. How can I not believe you? Can I not know your feelings for me?" "Really?" Chen zhe sniffed and asked, but there was no grievance in his eyes. Instead, he flashed cunning and even a successful smile in the corners of his mouth. "Hmm..." Ye Chenyu replied, "that kind of fresh meat, how can I have a man''s charm, right? You won''t like him unless you have eye problems..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu pulled at the corners of his mouth. She felt that ye Chenyu was born with no decency. He coaxed people and coaxed them so without decency "Are you going to be in this corridor with me all the time?" Chen asked. Ye Chenyu let go of Chen Yu and saw that she was still smiling with a ghost''s heart at the corner of her mouth. Her eyes were deep and didn''t expose her just pretending. After entering the room, Chen Yu took the lead in saying, "you''re sleeping in the second bedroom tonight." "Why?" Ye Chenyu asked. Chen Yu looked wolf proof, "I have a case meeting tomorrow morning..." By implication, she needs a rest. "I can''t do anything with you..." Ye Chenyu was dissatisfied. "Or do you sleep with me and think I can do something to you?" "..." Chen Yu''s mouth shriveled, "Ye Chenyu, don''t blame me for your indecency..." She snorted, put down her bag, changed her clothes and took a bath. Of course, ye Chenyu didn''t go to bed at last, but he didn''t do anything to Chen. Although men''s thoughts at night are obscene, it doesn''t mean they don''t love their women Well, it''s over! However, in the middle of the night, Chen Yu slept soundly. When he took a cold shower, he felt that he was asking for sin. Drooping eyes Ye Chenyu sighed: "we can''t overeat, can''t we?! we should pay attention to rational distribution in order to have the energy to continue fighting..." ¡­¡­ All things are quiet in the dark night. Zhang Nian dragged her tired body and opened the door to enter the house. It''s two o''clock Come back from heaven night every day, basically this point. The next morning, I have to go to the convenience store to work. Basically, I have only three or four hours of rest every day. Zhang Yi has to go to the room and wash her feet. Then she has to go to see her mother. Now life is very simple, only work, earn money and take care of my mother. Zhang Nian lay in bed, watching the desk lamp reflect a sensitive scene on the roof... Gradually lost his mind. The shadow of Chu Zixiao was completely in his mind. Gradually, Zhang Nian frowned and murmured, "what does he really want to do?" Chapter 1180 Zhang Nian turned over and looked at the lamp without blinking After Chu Zixiao came alone that day, he would go to heaven night every day. Sometimes alone, sometimes with friends. I order her to serve wine every time. If there are many people, what she usually does is to collect the wine bottles and order, and basically do the work of the waiter. If he went alone, he would let her sit aside. Without talking, he drank and read the court file. At first, she asked him to "protest". But he was so lightly that "I ordered you to come to serve the wine, and how to serve the wine, that has the final say..." Zhang nianshen sighed, a little agitated. She turned off the light, closed her eyes and didn''t want to think again. However, her mind is full of Chu Zixiao. She can''t help it if she doesn''t think about it Suddenly he opened his eyes again, his eyes were dark, and he had a complex emotion that could not be explained clearly. I don''t know how long it took. Zhang niancai went to sleep unconsciously When the alarm clock rang, she suddenly woke up and sat up, looking at the front with empty eyes and no focus. She gasped slightly and felt a chill behind her. She seemed to have a terrible dream, but what was it? At the moment, her mind was blank, only the panic. Swallowed, Zhang Nian looked sideways at the time and closed his eyes. She wanted to recall her dream, but she couldn''t remember it at all. Suddenly The sound of "Dong" came again. Zhang nianxian was stunned. After subconsciously shouting "Mom", he turned over and got out of bed and hurried to Yang Yi''s bedroom. As soon as I opened the door, I saw Yang Yi fall to the ground with a pale face, and the whole person lost her blood color. "Mom --" Zhang Nian shouted and hurried forward to visit. Yang Yi has fainted. Zhang Nian''s efforts to stabilize her mind hastened to make an emergency call, and then began to take preliminary emergency measures. The ambulance came quickly. The doctor first came forward to examine Yang Yi. Zhang Nian swallowed her nervous saliva and tried to calm her mind. She told the doctor about Yang Yi''s condition and illness The doctor looked at Zhang Nian curiously. Although she is a family member of the patient, her words about the condition and her professional face to the doctor are obviously not just family members. "Medical student?" The doctor asked casually. Zhang Nianzhe the corner of his mouth and was silent before he said: "nursing professional." The doctor looked at Zhang Nian again and said nothing more. He just received the examination and motioned the accompanying people to bring a stretcher. "Your mother needs to go to the hospital for further examination..." Zhang Nian nodded, ignoring that he was wearing pajamas. He just fished out a long coat and put it outside. He took his cell phone and wallet and went to the hospital with the ambulance. During the examination, Zhang Nian went to the hospital bathroom to wash her face casually. At present, she can''t care about her image. She knew her mother''s disease very well. There was a root cause of the disease. When something happened to Zhang Jia and her father was in prison, it suddenly broke out Want to be good Zhang Nian wrapped his coat and sat curled up in the waiting chair, his face almost buried in his arm on his legs. She didn''t seem to be sad, but she was shrouded in sadness. At the moment, her mind was almost empty, and her heart was obviously blocked by many emotions, but she didn''t know what emotions were. In the corridor, people walked back and forth, and their eyes occasionally fell on Zhang Nian, either sympathy or indifference. The cell phone rings suddenly Zhang Nian didn''t "hear", or she fell into an empty hole. "Hello, miss, your cell phone is ringing..." Zhang Nian pushed her shoulder, but there was no response. Zhang Nian looked at the person who pushed her. The man frowned. "Your cell phone is ringing!" Zhang Nian was suddenly startled and then came back to his senses. "Thank you..." Zhang Nian hurriedly took out his mobile phone from his pocket, just as the bell stopped. She turned it on and the call was from the convenience store. Zhang Nian looked at the time, suddenly widened his eyes and hurriedly replied to the past "Hello?" "Xiao Nian, why haven''t you come yet?" On the phone, the voice of another clerk on this morning''s shift was a little cautious. "I, I forgot the time..." Zhang Nian said, "my mother came to the hospital in the morning, and I''m still in a hurry..." "Zhang Nian, in order to take care of you, I put you on the long day shift..." The voice in the phone suddenly interrupted Zhang Nian''s words, "if you don''t come, don''t say a word. Come over in the morning and say that the door hasn''t opened yet!" "Sorry, landlady, because I..." "I don''t want to hear the reason." The landlady interrupted Zhang Nian again, "who doesn''t have a thing? If it''s all the same as you, don''t open the store? If you have something, you can solve your problem well and don''t come again..." "Landlady..." "Doodle doodle!" The sound of hanging up came. Zhang Nian couldn''t care about anything else and hurriedly dialed back She managed to find a job that won''t delay going to heaven night in the daytime. Because of convenience, she can get some special food that is about to expire but doesn''t expire. These are very important to her life now The phone answered, "landlady..." "Doodle doodle!" Zhang Nian''s words haven''t been completely said yet. The phone hung up again. Zhang Nian clenched his lips tightly, his nose was sour, and hurried to tilt his head Instinctive reaction wants to cover up the sadness and weakness of this moment, but it just leaves the direction of the examination room. And the emergency doctor doesn''t know when to stand there He took a panoramic view of Zhang Nian''s sadness and frowned slightly. Zhang Nian was stunned at first. He didn''t care whether his weakness was very bad at the moment. He hurried up and walked over, "doctor, how''s my mother?" "You need to be hospitalized," said the doctor professionally. "You study nursing. You should know that your mother''s situation is not optimistic." Although he knew, when he heard the doctor say so, Zhang Nian only felt that the position of his heart suddenly stung. Her mouth tilted slightly to her face and stifled the sudden overflow of moisture. "I''ll go through the hospitalization procedures first..." Zhang Nian said, as if afraid to reveal his emotions in front of strangers, turned quickly and strode to the payment Office The doctor looked at Zhang Nian''s back and gradually deepened his eyes. He is a doctor and sees many joys and sorrows caused by thorny diseases. I thought he could become indifferent gradually, but when I saw such a girl with thin shoulders, but insisted on supporting a sky, it was unspeakable sour. ¡­¡­ Xiao Mu stands at XK training camp, the entrance of hell forest Not far away, the voice of training came, showing the fierceness of killing. "Master Xiao..." someone came up behind him. Xiao Mu looked back and took back his sight. He just said, "did you find someone?" "Yes, Jane Mo''s blood samples and silence reagent have been sent..." the man looked at the entrance of hell forest. "Does Lord Xiao want star to enter hell forest?" Xiao Mu''s eyes narrowed slightly, and his voice said slowly: "who can pick up XK, don''t walk around from inside?" The man frowned. "Did Xiao decide to train him to take XK?!" Xiao Mu smiled on one side of his mouth, his eyes became familiar, and his voice said with deep meaning: "growing up around Shi Shaoqin, whether it''s temperament or ability, it must be very good!" Chapter 1181 Shi Shaoqin looked at Star sitting on the sand stall drying sunflower seeds, his small hands pulling at random, and his small face was completely serious. The sight gradually became soft, and star was able to "return" to him and say he was unhappy. It was all a lie. Anyway, Shi Shaoqin always felt as if his heart would be much softer when he saw star. Especially Even if star repeats his gestures every time he wakes up, he has subconscious dependence and love for him and sunflower seeds. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes gradually deepened as he looked at star. The beautiful handsome face was unreal in the sun of Mo palace. His mind wandered a little. At first, in Haibin City, Mo''er also had an inexplicable preference for the "strange" Beichen. At that time, he was angry. But now I think that drugs can only control the paralysis of human central nervous system, but they can not really control human consciousness. splendid! Shi Shaoqin smiled back when star turned his head and looked at him grinning Come forward, Shi Shaoqin squats down beside star. "Today''s batch will be dried again..." Shi Shaoqin said softly. "Make it into several flavors and give it to Mo''er, OK?" "Mo''er?!" Star fanned his bright eyes and his little face was full of doubts. Shi Shaoqin gently rubbed star''s head, then moved the blue agate on his wrist and said, "a person who is very important to stone and star..." Star didn''t understand what "very important" meant, but looked at Shi Shaoqin and grinned and made a cute "um" sound. Shi Shaoqin smiled. From the decision to send star away, his gloomy and dignified mood seemed to gradually inject a light that he couldn''t resist and greedily wanted to grasp. Star crawled to the other side and continued to fiddle with sunflower seeds. Shi Shaoqin never left his sight, but gradually became deep Xiao Mu''s intention to want star is obvious. If he can take over XK, star''s achievements will not be simple. Everyone who is liked by XK speakers is thought through. Instead of giving star ten years, Xiao Mu also wants to see the star ten years later. It''s still not what he wants But privately, he doesn''t want star to pick up XK. Even if it was mo palace, he didn''t intend to let star pick up Star''s world should be full of beauty, but it seems that if there is only white in this world, we will forget and fail to realize the importance of white. Shi Shaoqin takes out his mobile phone and calls up a message Xiao Mu sent him at last: what others call "being good for him" in a person''s life may not be what he wants. Instead of blocking his talent, why not let him choose? Shi Shaoqin''s eyes looked at the message deeply, and finally turned into a sigh Follow star. If star wants a peaceful life, no matter how much he pays, he will create a quiet for him. If star finally chooses the thorns all over the road to create a life of laughing and watching the wind and cloud, he is the barrier for star to worry free! ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. It''s night! Chen Chen is nervous. He will see if his clothes fit and if his makeup is too special Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu and said with a wicked smile, "tut Tut, I''m not nervous when I go to see my father-in-law and mother-in-law... You''re so nervous when you face a mother-in-law!" Chen Chen glared at Ye Chenyu angrily and looked back at the gift he bought in the back seat. "Uncle Ye, can I buy too few of these? I just said to buy some more bird''s nests. You have to buy some fruit! Does my aunt think I don''t pay attention to the first meeting?" "Don''t worry, your future mother-in-law won''t close her mouth when she sees you buy these..." Ye Chenyu said, "she doesn''t want a real daughter-in-law!" "Really?!" Ye Chenyu couldn''t laugh or cry, "you''ve confirmed with me for the fifth time..." "Is there so much?" "Yes!" "No?" "Yes!" "Oh, that''s it..." Chen Fu drooped his shoulders, "are you sure about these..." Ye Chenyu looked at Chen, and Chen suddenly shut up. Because I found that she had to ask for the sixth time Chen Chen is not nervous, and mother Ye is not calm at all. When her son was so old, she brought a girl back to see her for the first time. She was nervous for a while to see if there was anything wrong with the ingredients prepared in the kitchen, and then looked through the window The nervousness is no less than that of Chen Yu. Look at the time, and the time ye Chenyu told her is still a while Mother ye went to get her mobile phone and called Li Xiaoyue. "Aunt..." Li Xiaoyue looked through the file. "Chen Yu and Chen Yu haven''t passed yet?!" "No, I''m a little nervous!" Li Xiaoyue put down the file, smiled and said, "aunt, I''m going to be jealous..." "Ah?!" Mother Ye was stunned. "When Shaochen and I went there, I didn''t see you nervous about me..." Li Xiaoyue deliberately said, "why, I don''t think I''m your daughter-in-law compared with Chen!" "Smelly girl, what nonsense?!" Mother Ye smiled and scolded. Li Xiaoyue got up and took the cup to pick up the water. "Since it''s the same, face it with the same mood... In this way, Chen Yu can be more comfortable." "A lawyer has a strong mouth!" Mother Ye was really relaxed when she was stirred by Li Xiaoyue. Li Xiaoyue followed the water and suddenly smiled, "aunt, our family will be on the political and legal line in the future..." Two criminal lawyers, two policemen. Although Ye Chenyu resigned, to be honest, what he did was still the work of the police! Mother Ye sighed with relief, "in fact, everything is good. As long as you can stay with me until you get old, being safe... Is more important than anything." "Yes!" Li Xiaoyue drank water and leaned on the glass platform. Looking at the dark sky outside, "it seems that there is no problem for our wedding to be held together this morning." When mother ye thought of Mo Huai''s two sons holding a wedding together, her nose was sour and her eyes were full of happy tears. She has been with Mo Huai for more than 30 years now Years had slipped away quietly in the fingers. However, there were regrets in the past, but now there are no regrets What else can she ask for. After chatting with Li Xiaoyue again, mother Ye hung up. She went to the kitchen again, looked at the heat of the previously boiled soup, and began to mix cold dishes When ye Chenyu and Chen Yu arrive, they can cook. The sky is getting darker and darker, and the street lights and night lights around have been on On the road outside the villa, a black car stopped there. Ye Haoyang could just see the position of the kitchen through the iron fence outside. When he saw the busy figure of mother ye, his eyes filled with complex emotions. There is the shadow of the lamp behind Ye Haoyang looked up at the reversing mirror. He didn''t leave. He just watched Ye Chenyu''s car turn into the yard of the small villa through the reversing mirror. Ye Chenyu drove the car very well. He opened the door and motioned Chen to get off. Then they carried the fruit they bought and the gift for mother ye into the villa Chapter 1182 Ye Haoyang kept watching until ye Chenyu and Chen Yu entered the house without looking back. Looking at the kitchen again, mother Ye has gone out It seems that we can imagine the laughter inside. In front of Ye''s mother, Chen Yu has completely lost the domineering spirit of the police station and the charming in front of Ye Chenyu. The whole clever makes Ye''s mother think and like it. "Why did my ugly son cheat such a beautiful girl..." mother Ye couldn''t close her mouth with a smile. Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu proudly, smiled and said, "aunt, because I''m stupid and easy to cheat!" Mother Ye laughed happily as soon as she heard it. "It''s all right. I''ll be there in the future... If Chenyu bullies you, I''ll beat him!" "OK..." Chen zhe took mother Ye''s arm and asked in a low voice, "aunt, can you beat him?" Mother Ye likes the closeness of dead Chen. "If I hit him, he doesn''t care to fight back!" "Oh..." Chen Yu nodded suddenly, smiled and said, "that''s OK!" Then she gave mother Ye an "OK" gesture, which made her happier. Ye Chenyu looked at two women, one old and one young, who were openly "controlling" him. His eyes were filled with evil cunning, and the ruffian smile at the corners of his mouth was even more arrogant But it''s like this. He seems to do nothing inadvertently, but he always knows what is best for him and what he needs?! Unlike Ye Chenyu''s visit to Chen''s house, Chen''s visit to Ye''s mother''s house was so smooth that she almost forgot to see her mother-in-law After one night, the mother-in-law and daughter-in-law found that they had a lot of common topics and talked all the time, ignoring Ye Chenyu directly. The most important thing is that after dinner, mother Ye is going to wash the dishes, and Chen rushes to wash Finally, the two men looked at Ye Chenyu unanimously! Ye Chenyu shook his head with a deep sigh while he was washing the dishes and listening to the voices of the two women who had lost themselves in the conversation outside. "This family status, how can you find a daughter-in-law and lose it?" Ye Chenyu looked at the dishes and other things in the pool. Although he was sighing, it was obvious that Shu Xin was written on his face. Ye Chenyu whistled and hummed while washing dishes He put the cleaned bowl back into the cupboard, and his squatting body suddenly paused Through the window, I fell on the car on the road outside. If it weren''t for the night, the car seemed to be combined with inkkong. Slightly invisible light frowned, and ye Chenyu tilted his head to meditate. Although this is a single family villa area, he is familiar with several families nearby This car seems strange?! Ye Chenyu thought for a while and didn''t think much. He just thought he was looking for someone else. After cleaning up the kitchen, I went to the living room Just as ye Chenyu turned out of the kitchen, ye Haoyang took back his sight, started the car and left. ¡­¡­ After Chen Yu and ye Chenyu met their parents, because they were in a hurry for the wedding, the meeting of their parents was put on the agenda under the same case. In the twinkling of an eye, a week has passed! The parents of the two sides reached an agreement to set the wedding time on the wedding day with Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue. The wedding has been put on the agenda. However, the protagonists at the wedding seem to have nothing to do with themselves and are busy "Xiaoyu, have you got your marriage certificate with Chenyu?" Xie Zhenru asked. Chen Yu sat in the monitoring car with an absent-minded face, "don''t worry." "Don''t worry... You don''t worry about your wedding. Why don''t you care about getting this certificate?" Xie Zhenru was dissatisfied. Chen didn''t answer. It should be said that she didn''t listen at all. Xie Zhenru said a few more words, and Chen Yu said directly, "Mom, I''m a little busy here, let''s go back and talk..." Before Xie Zhenru could speak, Chen hung up. That''s good. Chen Qishan, who is angry, blows his beard and stares. "I''ll call ye Chenyu..." Chen Qishan was dissatisfied and dialed Ye Chenyu''s phone. "Can my little friend be anxious to get the certificate? How can I ask the boy to take the initiative..." Ye Chenyu was with brother Shui when the phone rang. Seeing that it was the father-in-law, he hurried to pick it up "Uncle!" "Uncle what father?!" Chen Qishan''s voice was full of discontent. "This wedding is held with your brother. Don''t worry. I''ll bear it... Are you going to have only form and don''t need to be legal, right?" Ye Chenyu was stunned. "When I lied to my daughter before, what about the strong stock? Why, when I got it, I don''t need it. I have to go through the investigation period, internship period, probation period... And finally see if I can become a regular?" For a while, ye Chenyu also understood the meaning of his father-in-law. "Don''t worry, you must work with a certificate..." Ye Chenyu motioned brother Shui to go first. "Chen Chen is not working on a case these two days. Can''t you spare some time?" She paused. "After this case, she took a vacation... Even the day before the wedding!" Old Chen was so angry that he wanted to vomit blood Just wanted to say, you think the Civil Affairs Bureau is run by your family?! But when it came to the mouth, it was swallowed back. Ye Chenyu didn''t set up the Civil Affairs Bureau, but ye Chenyu has Mo Shaochen as his brother, that is to say, Gu Beichen as his backer It''s hard to say. It''s estimated that you need to get the certificate in the middle of the night. Gu Beichen can also get it done! Thinking of meeting Ye''s mother, I found out Ye Chenyu''s real identity Looking at the golden nanmu chessboard and the pieces of ink and white jade in front of him, Lao Chen felt a little blocked. It''s expensive, but it''s small money for the president''s wife of emperor group. The six bottles of red wine with price and no market are blues, and Gu Beichen is the behind the scenes boss of Blues Lao Chen felt that because he didn''t know ye Chenyu''s identity, he dug a pit himself and finally jumped by himself! Thinking of this, Lao Chen angrily hung up the phone and didn''t even say a word to Ye Chenyu. Listening to the "beep beep" hanging up sound from his mobile phone, ye Chenyu shook his head helplessly. The father-in-law''s "love for women" complex is a disease that needs treatment! Ye Chenyu caught up with brother Shui. "Ah Yu..." brother Shui glanced at Ye Chenyu and his face was worried. "Do you think that person will appear tonight?" Ye Chenyu''s face was the usual evil ruffian. He pulled out his cigarette and lit it. "It''s hard to say..." he paused. "Later, you should do as I say. You can''t make mistakes, okay Brother Shui nodded, "I know." Ye Chenyu said "well" and looked at the fork in front. "OK, you go, I''m nearby. If you have a problem, remember to call me." Brother Shui''s face is dignified. Ye Chenyu patted brother Shui on the shoulder and gave him a stable look. It''s time In the monitoring car, Lu Xiaowei suddenly said, "Chen Ju, with brother Shui, it seems that brother Yu?!" Chapter 1183 The monitoring car is connected to the nearby public monitor, which can be seen at a glance by most of the people in the corner. "Huh?!" Chen Yu wondered and looked at the surveillance video. In the picture, ye Chenyu didn''t know what he said to brother Shui. Then he patted him on the shoulder and the two dispersed Ye Chenyu went to a milk tea shop across the street, ordered a cup of coffee, leaned against a lamp post and began to drink. His posture is lazy and evil, shrouded in the orange light of the street lamp, showing the charm of a mature man. Ye Haoyang was also in the car. He glanced at the people on the monitor and looked at Chen Yu again. He doesn''t need to come for tonight''s action. He''s just a psychologist. Anyway, I have nothing to do, and tonight is just an action day speculated by him and Chen according to the heart of the criminal He wanted to test the offender''s psychology, so he came by. It''s just Brother Ye Chenyu is still with me. "The rats have begun to look for food," Chen said calmly while pressing his headphones and looking at Ye Chenyu in the monitor. "The cat keeps up. Remember, the cat plays with the mouse. Don''t scare the snake." "Cat, got it!" After the sound came from the earphone, Chen''s hand fell off the earphone. At the same time, ye Chenyu turned and left with coffee "Chen Ju, do you want someone to contact brother Yu?" Someone asked. Chen Yu''s beautiful eyes narrowed slightly, "no need." She believes Ye Chenyu! How can a person who loves the work of the police do something that touches the bottom line? It''s normal that he has been undercover and will have contact with some people wandering in the gray area in society. As long as ye Chenyu holds the degree well, it''s good! Ye Chenyu didn''t know that Chen Yu was nearby. He was just drinking coffee and looking at the location on his mobile phone. With the Bluetooth headset on, he needs to know about brother Shui at any time. The other party did so many things, but finally led the police clue to brother Shui. Is there any connection between them?! The most important thing is that brother Shui is usually loyal and seldom has a tie It doesn''t make sense to say that the other party has a grudge against him. As time goes by, ye Chenyu looks at the time. More than 20 minutes have passed Thinking, suddenly, a strange gasp came from the headset. Ye Chenyu suddenly twisted his eyebrows. Just as he wanted to speak, he heard brother Shui scream. "What''s going on?" Ye Chenyu''s face was calm inside. Brother Shui gasped and looked at the scene in front of him. He didn''t know how to react for a long time. "What''s going on?" Ye Chenyu asked while looking at brother Shui''s positioning and hurried to his side. When he got to the place, he looked at the scene in front of him and frowned in an instant. The lane, which is not very bright, has the stench of garbage, which fills the space and makes people sick. On the ground, a 20-year-old girl with Bobo head was lying on the ground without knowing whether she fainted or something, and her coat was a little untidy. Brother Shui has been detained by the criminal police team. It looks like he was stolen and caught. "Ye Dui?!" Someone recognized Ye Chenyu. "Ah Yu, it''s not me, you have to believe that it''s really not me..." brother Shui said hurriedly, looking at Ye Chenyu for help. He is a big old man. This situation has been chaotic. Ye Chenyu came with him, but it''s only 20 minutes. How can he commit a crime?! Of course, brother Shui can''t think of this layer at the moment. Ye Chenyu didn''t speak yet, and there were messy and hurried footsteps behind him. Chen Chen and others rushed over. She first asked two policewomen to deal with the girl. Then she looked at Ye Chenyu and looked at the police officer escorting brother Shui, "take people back first..." "Ah Yu?!" Brother Shui wanted to struggle. When he came into contact with Ye Chenyu''s eyes, he held back. People were taken away. Originally, they just stepped on the spot deeply, but finally a victim appeared under their eyes. This is not only the pain of the victims, but also slapping Chen and them in the face. "Inform the people below to investigate nearby and pay attention to the flow of people in various sections..." Chen Yu ordered the people skillfully and quickly. Then, the on-site investigation of the on-site investigation, looking for clues, looking for clues. But in a circle, the opponent''s technique is still the same as that of the previous times, and there is no trace at all. "Why are you here?" Chen zhe looked at the corner of his mouth and asked Ye Chenyu. "I came here with brother Shui." Ye Chenyu replied, "I need to assist in the investigation. I''ll go back with you..." The atmosphere was a little awkward. The people who kept them looked at each other and looked at Chen Yu and ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu was a policeman before. Naturally, the process is very clear. But his current relationship with Chen Yu "Brother Yu doesn''t need it?" Someone said, "such a thing can''t have anything to do with brother Yu..." "According to the process," Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu with guilt in his eyes, "you still have to make a record." Ye Chenyu shrugged, winked at Chen Yu and motioned her not to be embarrassed. He didn''t matter. Ye Chenyu left with the people of the criminal police team Of course, it also has positive contact with ye Haoyang, a small fresh meat. Two men, one is evil and evil, and the other is hiding a knife in a smile. With a pair of eyes, the electric light and flint can set the carriage on fire. Chen Yu thought about the case and didn''t pay attention to the mood between the two men. But the other two people in the same car looked at the man and grinned secretly. Soon, everyone went back to the east district police station. Ye Chenyu didn''t think of it, or the east district police officer on duty didn''t think of it After he left the police station, in addition to "seducing" Chen, he actually came seriously once as a suspect. The notes are made quickly. At first, the policeman asked, and ye Chenyu answered Later, it seemed that ye Chenyu said by himself and told the police to remember. "Brother Yu, how easy it would be for us if everyone cooperated with you like this..." Ye Chenyu looked at the policeman who asked for the record and smiled with deep meaning and evil spirit. Just listen to his faint mouth: "don''t you think I dominate your thinking?" A light sentence stunned the police officer first, and then his face was shocked. He opened his mouth slightly and looked at Ye Chenyu. He couldn''t return to his mind for a long time. Ye Chenyu smiled and got up. "Sometimes being relaxed is not necessarily a good thing..." He patted the policeman on the shoulder and went out. The policeman''s scalp is numb. If ye Chenyu is a criminal, it''s a terrible thing He knows everything about the police station too well, and even leads you to follow his emotions and thoughts unconsciously. Ye Chenyu goes to brother Shui''s interrogation room Just wanted to turn from the corridor, I heard a voice "Do you believe Ye Chenyu so?" Ye Haoyang raised his eyebrow. "Brother Shui is now the biggest suspect. According to the monitoring, it can be said that he is the same!" Chapter 1184 Chen Yu looked at ye Haoyang with a dull look. "What do you want to say?" "What I want to say is not obvious?" Ye Haoyang raised his eyebrows. "Ye Chenyu used to be an undercover and knew the corners there very well. But he was also a policeman, so he knew everything about the police very well..." Chen Yu didn''t speak, but looked at ye Haoyang without blinking. "To a large extent, the suspect probability of brother Shui is less than that of Ye Chenyu..." ye Haoyang said calmly. Chen Yu smiled, but there was no temperature: "who is the suspect? This is what our police need to confirm..." she looked back. "Your analysis is very reasonable, and tonight, he is indeed more suspected than brother Shui." She looked at ye Haoyang again, "but I believe him, and I will prove that neither he nor brother Shui... Our direction is wrong." Chen Yu is very calm and has no so-called emotional feelings. As a policeman, she needs to seek justice for the victims and bring peace and tranquility to the society. And she will soon be the wife of the man who gave up his dream for her. She also has the obligation to prove to him that she will not only move forward with his dream, but also give him enough trust. Ye Chenyu leaned against the wall and smiled. Her little girl is quite calm. "Brother Yu..." Someone shouted at the right time. Ye Chenyu looked at the place where the voice came from. At the same time, ye Haoyang frowned slightly, and Chen Yu frowned. They looked at each other and walked towards the corridor interface. "Chen Bureau, ye consultant." The policeman said hello and then handed the folder to Ye Chenyu. "Brother Yu, you need to sign this." Ye Chenyu opened it, previewed it quickly and signed it. "I want to keep water..." Ye Chenyu said, looking at Chen. Chen Yu shook his head, "I can''t guarantee it for the time being." Ye Chenyu naturally expected such a result, "is it all right to meet?" Chen Yu nodded, "I''ll arrange." "Yes." Chen Chen arranged for ye Chenyu to meet brother Shui. Of course, it was in a monitored interrogation room. Ye Chenyu didn''t say anything, just asked brother Shui about the situation at that time. Brother Shui''s answer was consistent with his confession, that is, when he saw someone flash past, he went after him, and then there was a scene in front of him. He asked Ye Chenyu to come, but the police arrived before ye Chenyu came. Ye Chenyu took a cigarette and lit one himself. Then he hung his eyes and pondered. It feels like a coincidence, but it''s too coincidence. He doesn''t believe in so many coincidences. If there are many coincidences, it must be man-made. After taking a smoke, ye Chenyu said, "I''m afraid you''ll stay in the Bureau for a few days..." "That won''t work. My wife and daughter will come up in a few days. I can''t be here!" Brother Shui was worried, "ah Yu, you know, I didn''t do it!" "I know it''s useless..." Ye Chenyu took a cigarette. "There must be evidence to prove that you are innocent." Brother Shui was impatient and wanted to jump violently, but he was stopped by Ye Chenyu''s fierce eyes. "Fuck..." brother Shui gnashed his teeth. "Which turtle son framed me. I fucking turned around and twisted his turtle son''s head!" Brother Shui was in a hurry and said dirty words. Ye chenyunian put out the smoke and got up. "Just rest for a few days..." paused. "I''ll deal with it as soon as possible. My sister-in-law and niece came back and guaranteed to give them a just and awe inspiring father." "Ah Yu, I depend on you!" Brother Shui said this with a sad face. He believes in Ye Chenyu. This man speaks of righteousness and his words will be realized. Ye Chenyu didn''t say much. He just patted brother Shui on the shoulder and turned to leave the interrogation room. Chen Yu also came out of the monitoring room "When do you get off work?" Ye Chenyu asked. "It''s all right tonight. You can go." "Then I''ll take your car..." "Yes!" Chen Yu nodded, "I''ll get the bag." The autumn night is a little cold. It has cooled down once before. It has warmed up during the day, but it is still very cold at night. Without words all the way, ye Chenyu seemed very tired. He leaned back on his seat and pretended to sleep with his eyes closed. But when the man came home, without saying a word, he put Chen Yu on the door and ate it hard Chen Yu had something to ask him, but ye Chenyu attacked him so hard that he didn''t have a chance to speak. Even, ye Chenyu was too eager to go to bed He pressed her against the door and ran into it. Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu vaguely, with complex emotions. "Little girl doesn''t concentrate..." Ye Chenyu''s voice is hoarse, and his actions become more rough and crazy. In the end, Chen Yu was unable to think about anything at last and let Ye Chenyu toss about. Chen Chen nestled in Ye Chenyu''s arms and listened to the man behind her with even breath. She lowered her eyes, "Uncle Ye, are you asleep?" "Well..." Ye Chenyu answered. Chen Yu glanced. "Is it the ghost who promised to fall asleep?" Ye Chenyu sighed, pulled over Chen Yu, then turned over and pressed her under her. Ye Chenyu kissed Chen Yu''s skin, and his body rubbed her, full of ambiguity under doting Chen Chen was a little angry and pushed Ye Chenyu. "Can''t you talk to me well?" "Say what?" Chen Yu deliberately lifted her neck. Chen Chen became more angry. "I don''t believe it. You don''t know what I''m going to say!" Ye Chenyu stopped, sighed softly, and propped his arms on both sides of Chen Yu''s side, with a deep view of Chen Yu''s eyes. "I know what you want to ask..." Ye Chenyu said slowly, "but at present, our identity is embarrassing. I don''t want you to cause unnecessary trouble because of me, do you understand?!" Chen Shuo said, "but..." "No, but!" Ye Chenyu interrupted Chen Yu, "now you are a policeman and I am a citizen. What happened tonight makes me suspect. You don''t need to tell me anything now. Just do what you need to do, okay?" When the words fell, ye Chenyu leaned over and tore and sharpened Chen Yu''s lips. "Little girl, it''s right to distinguish between public and private..." Ye Chenyu bit Chen Yu''s lower lip. "You have to worry about me and handle a case. How can you do it?" He got up. "If I knew that the east side took over the case, I wouldn''t care about it." When he left the police station, he didn''t want to embarrass Chen one day. But now the detective agency has just accepted the first case, just opposite the east side Ye Chenyu has some helplessness. I really don''t know whether he is destined for Chen or an enemy! "Uncle Ye, I love you..." Chen Fu groaned and lowered his eyes. Ye Chenyu gently pinched Chen Yu''s nose. "What do you love? Now you handle the case and I take the money. I don''t know how happy I am!" "Huh?" Chen Yu didn''t react. "My silly girl..." Ye Chenyu kissed Chen Yu, "my detective agency took the case, now my wife solved the case, I take the money..." paused, "don''t you want to raise me?" Chapter 1185 Ye Chenyu doesn''t want her to be embarrassed. Chen Yu knows. But it''s one thing to be clear, and it''s another thing not to think about it Chen Chen nestled in Ye Chenyu''s arms and felt his breath, but his mood could not calm down. Ye Chenyu didn''t speak any more. He circled Chen Yu in his arms again, his lips gently on her head, "sleep!" "Good night..." "Ann, little girl!" Ye Chenyu closed his eyes and his voice showed a trace of evil charm in the dark night. Chen Yu also closed his eyes, but he didn''t feel sleepy at all. Chen didn''t know when he fell asleep. When he woke up, it was already dawn. There was a rustling sound outside. Chen Yu turned over lazily, and ye Chenyu was no longer in bed. He felt his hand and gently touched the place where ye Chenyu had slept. The corners of Chen''s mouth gradually raised a smile "Uncle Ye, I will support you. Don''t worry!" Chen Chuan murmured and sat up. He stretched a lot before going to wash. When we arrived at the restaurant, breakfast was already on the table. Chen Shuba was at the kitchen door, smiling at Ye Chenyu. "Good morning, family cook!" "Good morning..." Ye Chenyu turned around with the atherosclerotic bowl and leaned over to steal incense on Chen Yu''s face. "Eat quickly and go to work after eating." "Oh!" Chen Ying answered. Chen Chen finished his breakfast with momentum. "Do you want to take you to the detective agency?" "I can''t wait. You go to work first..." Ye Chenyu said. Knowing that ye Chenyu was avoiding suspicion, Chen Yu grabbed his arm and kissed him at the corner of his mouth, "then I''ll go... Bye!" Just about to let go, ye Chenyu grabbed her waist, turned around, put her on the table and kissed her It was a kiss of extreme non gluttonous foot. He didn''t let go until Chen was out of breath. Ye Chenyu smiled and raised his hand to wipe Chen Yu''s dizzy lipstick. "The makeup is spent..." he paused. He took Chen Yu''s bag, took out the red and began to draw for her. Obviously, it''s a small thing, but at the moment, Chen''s heart is beating like thunder. "Looking at me with such eyes, don''t you want to go to work?" Ye Chenyu''s voice is a little dangerous. Chen Yu smiled, "I just think I got the treasure..." "Oh?!" Chen Shu''s smiling eyes were bent. "My Uncle Ye can fight hooligans when I go out, be a god of war when I go to bed, and be a cook when I go to the kitchen... The hand holding the gun can also add red makeup to me!" Ye Chenyu smiled and hooked Chen''s nose. "Sweet mouth..." he got up. "Drive carefully on the road, huh?!" "Yes!" Chen Ying answered and went out. When the door closed, ye Chenyu''s smile gradually converged, and finally turned into a slight sigh. After cleaning up the breakfast dishes, ye Chenyu left Chen''s apartment. ¡­¡­ "Mr. Ye, the designs of these sets are based on the style loved by young people nowadays..." the sales consultant said, "the whole floor doesn''t have the same design. It depends on what style and size you need." "That''s it... The style my wife likes." Ye Chenyu looked around. "I''m going to have two children. Four bedrooms and two living rooms are enough." The sales consultant smiled and said, "in fact, Mr. Ye can choose a bigger one... Anyway, it''s cheap." "I have to afford it..." Ye Chenyu said seriously. "Although your president gave me a discount, I have to marry my daughter-in-law, buy a house and propose... It''s OK!" The sales consultant listened and smiled. This suite is more than 160 square meters. According to the market price, it is not affordable for ordinary people at all. Even parity is not a small number. Ye Chenyu can''t afford the salary, of course. However, he usually does financial management and investment. A little private money is true. The so-called marriage rub Mo Shaochen is a joke. If you marry your own daughter-in-law, how can you let others spend money?! Chen doesn''t mind, but he wants to leave a good memory for his daughter-in-law for the only time After booking a room, ye Chenyu left. Yesterday, ye Chenyu was put forward by the criminal. Naturally, ye Chenyu won''t take office and eat a dumb loss In the next five days, both ye Chenyu and Chen Yu were busy with the case. Except for the occasional phone call to care about each other, they haven''t met each other. Ye Haoyang and Chen Chen were studying the case in the office. The two and the suspect were two big plays, which were cat and mouse, and mouse and cat. "Prepare for action tonight. All members of the criminal police team are on standby..." Chen Yu began to assign personnel and tasks with a sonorous voice. At the moment, she is not ye Chenyu''s silly girl, but the overlord flower in the police station. Ye Haoyang sat aside and watched Chen Yu deploy. His sight gradually became deep "Consultant ye, tonight''s operation is very dangerous. You don''t need to participate." Chen Yu finally spoke. Ye Haoyang shook his head. "We are not fully aware of the suspect''s psychology. To a great extent, the other side is also a master. I will accompany him." Chen Yu frowned, "OK, you''re in the monitoring car!" Ye Haoyang opened his mouth. Just when he wanted to speak, he was blocked by Chen. "I am fully responsible for this operation. I hope consultant ye can cooperate!" Ye Haoyang choked back, shrugged and nodded. "Assemble at six in the evening," Chen Yu looked at the time, "eat, rest, integrate equipment... Break up!" "Yes!" Chen Yu turns around and leaves first. Ye Haoyang follows him out and they go to the office. "In fact, I don''t just use my brain..." ye Haoyang said, "I''m a judo black belt, and I won the prize in free fighting amateur competition..." "And then?" "I can take part in the operation!" Chen Yu looked at ye Haoyang. After a while, he said, "you just came to cooperate with the action, not the action personnel... I believe in the brother of the criminal police team!" Ye Haoyang looked at Chen Yu. "What are you worried about?" "Huh?" Chen Yu was puzzled. "Are you worried about my safety, or subconsciously, you don''t want to have too much contact with me?" Ye Haoyang asked. Chen Yu smiled, but without temperature. "Do you want to say next that I''m afraid of empathy because I find that you are more suitable for me than ye Chenyu? After all, we have common hobbies and our age is more appropriate?" Ye Haoyang was stunned. Chen Chen then said, "if I''m amorous, I apologize. But ye Haoyang, I''m very young, and ye Chenyu is much older than me... Even his identity or others don''t match me very well in the eyes of outsiders. However, you won''t understand that in my heart, I don''t deserve a man as good as him!" Chapter 1186 Just because she doesn''t say it doesn''t mean she doesn''t know. What ye Chenyu has done for her is intentional and can feel. She is not a woman who wants to change, and even, emotionally, she is not an active person. If she can take the initiative on Ye Chenyu''s side, she really wants this man, wants to live with him, or even live for a lifetime What does age matter? He dotes on her as he dotes on his "daughter". He is manly, and even he seems omnipotent, so that she doesn''t have any worries. Because he knows what he wants, he can always clearly know what she wants I haven''t seen Uncle Ye for five days. Chen Yu knows that everyone is really busy with the case, but also to avoid suspicion. Whether the suspect or Ye Chenyu''s detective agency, without cooperation with the police, he didn''t want her to be criticized. Her Uncle Ye is so good. Well, she feels that although her love starts first, it is not as much as he gives. "If we were earlier, maybe we would get together first..." ye Haoyang sighed softly. "If it weren''t for the delay of foreign projects, I would come back more than 20 days early. In that way, my aunt would introduce us first." "So what?" Chen Yu smiled, "there is no if! Besides, I fell in love with Ye Chenyu. It was not long after I returned home..." Chen Yu didn''t know until he contacted him these days. Ye Haoyang is what his mother said at the beginning. Aunt Mu''s nephew wants to introduce two people to each other. "What if ye Chenyu is not the kind of person you love?" Ye Haoyang suddenly asked. Chen Yu smiled, "no!" Simple two words, not even too much emotion, very calm. She trusted Ye Chenyu for no reason. Ye Haoyang looked at Chen for a while and suddenly asked, "Chen, don''t you mind that he is an illegitimate child?" Chen Yu frowned, "how do you know?" "How do I know it''s not important..." ye Haoyang stared at Chen Yu deeply. "When you ask this question, you have leaked your subconscious emotion..." paused, "Chen Yu, you care! Or Ye Chenyu cares, so you are sensitive to this topic!" Listening to ye Haoyang''s analysis, Chen Yu suddenly laughed "Ye Haoyang, even if I know you in front of Ye Chenyu, I won''t like you." Chen Yu raised his eyebrows. "Do you know why?" After a pause, Chen Yu spoke slowly, "because ye Chenyu knows me from his heart, and you... Rely on your professional instinct." At the end of Chen Yu''s speech, a touch of cunning crossed his eyes. "In fact, I''m a little strange..." Ye Haoyang frowned. "I can''t feel that you like me, although it seems that you want to pursue me..." Chen Yu tilted his head slightly. "I don''t know why, I think you seem to be targeting Ye Chenyu?" "What am I doing to him?" Ye Haoyang frowned. Chen Yu smiled and casually said, "who knows? It''s uncertain because you''re all surnamed Ye!" Chen Shuo shrugged, looked back and turned to get the work card to be used in the evening. At the moment she turned around, ye Haoyang''s face became a little strange Unfortunately, Chen did not see it. ¡­¡­ Night. For the Eastern District criminal police team, each face was dignified. If we fail to catch the criminals tonight, not only will more people be hurt, but also their incompetence. "Hand in your mobile phone..." Chen Yu opened his mouth and took the lead in putting the mobile phone in the box. In the evening, people involved in the operation handed in their mobile phones one after another. After passing the test area, they were equipped with professional satellite talkers for contact. Because this operation is a secret operation. Except for the backup blocking personnel, they drove private vehicles to leave the police station. Lu Xiaowei took the positioning system and looked at the personnel of all parties in place. "Chen Bureau, all personnel are in place." "Yes." Chen Ying answered, looked at it and said, "if you have any information, please report to me at any time." "Yes!" Lu Xiaowei pushed his eyes and watched Chen get out of the car before he took back his sight. At the same time Ye Chenyu took a cup of coffee and sat on the stone pier under the shade of the trees in the alley. After several days of watching, he hardly slept well, his eyes were full of red blood, and his beard was a little messy because it was not repaired. The whole person looks a little sloppy. But such sloppiness did not affect his image, but added a bit of evil spirit. Look at the time. It''s past eight o''clock in the evening Ye Chenyu drank a cup of coffee, looked at the picture on the screensaver and smiled. After he separated from Chen Yu that day, he took his cell phone and left directly. When he turned on his mobile phone, he knew that his little girl replaced her screensaver Ye Chenyu''s vision gradually deepened. Looking at Chen''s sweet smile, he gently crossed the mobile phone screen with his finger belly and then pressed it out. After another sip of coffee, ye Chenyu installed a mobile phone If he''s right, tonight should also be the day of the east side operation. Chen Yu leads people to arrest him. He is waiting here In these five days, he spent almost all his time on the terrain, except for occasionally getting things needed for the wedding. He promised that even if the man had wings, he would not want to escape this time. Time, little by little After drinking a cup of coffee, ye Chenyu looked at the rickety trash can not far away and aimed at it slightly. With a swish, the coffee cup fell into the trash can accurately. Ye Chenyu sat in his place, and the silence around him showed a trace of treacherous breath. Gradually, with the passage of time, it becomes dignified. It''s past eleven o''clock at night! Arrest is a test of patience. Ye Chenyu''s eyes narrowed slightly, and his ear nerves twitched in time After a while, I heard the sound of hurried footsteps running from the box in front of me. Ye Chenyu had a shallow smile on his lips. The shade of the trees fluttered with the wind, enveloping Ye Chenyu''s figure. A figure, holding something in his hand, ran away from the opposite alley Behind, there were noisy footsteps. Ye Chenyu was still hidden in the shade of the tree. He watched the policeman running after the man and didn''t move. When the police officer''s figure didn''t cross the alley, in another alley almost parallel to the previous escape route, a man looked at the direction pursued by the police officer and sneered at the corners of his mouth. He pressed the brim of his ordnance hat, then put his hands in his windbreaker pocket and walked to the alley in the direction of Ye Chenyu The man looked calm as if he was incompatible with the tense atmosphere, but there was no sense of contradiction. Ye Chenyu raised an evil ruffian smile on one side of his mouth. Just as the man was about to turn and leave the alley, he dodged out and stopped him! The man frowned, looked up and looked at Ye Chenyu with a faint cold in his sight. "Mice flirt with cats... It''s really interesting." Ye Chenyu spoke slowly with a smile. At the right time, there are footsteps behind, from far to near. Ye Chenyu frowned slightly. Almost at the same time, the man dodged and wanted to run to the alley on the other side Unfortunately, ye Chenyu had already seen through his mind. When he moved, he kicked at his face. The man skilfully turned sideways and kicked the other foot of Ye Chenyu. Ye Chenyu dodged and could only forcibly draw back the kicked foot. Then, the man can take advantage of this gap and escape. Unfortunately, he doesn''t know ye Chenyu. Almost at the beginning of his action, ye Chenyu had thought of his next move. Just as he spun and kicked over, ye Chenyu put his foot back, forcing the man to block with his hand. At the same time, ye Chenyu changed his way again, turned around and shackled his wrist. In due time, the previous footsteps have been close It''s Chen Yu and ye Haoyang who should have been on the monitoring car! "Either go together or run away separately..." almost at the same time, the man shackled by Ye Chenyu said eagerly, "let''s go separately and hope to escape!" As soon as the man''s words fell, Chen Yu and ye Haoyang subconsciously looked at Ye Chenyu Chapter 1187 holy crap Ye Chenyu immediately spit in his heart. This is coming. One is trying to drag him into the water, the other is trying to distract him and escape?! Ye Chenyu felt sick in his heart. Naturally, he would not give the man a chance to escape. Just when the man tried to divert Ye Chenyu''s attention in this way and wanted to take back the shackle wrist, he suddenly widened his eyes Instead of taking it back, he was rattled by Ye Chenyu holding the bone of his wrist. With a bang, ye Chenyu put his foot on the bend of the man''s leg. The man felt numbness in his knee and fell to his knees. "Er..." The man choked with pain. Ye Chenyu squatted down at the right time, looked at the man''s face twisted and ferocious because of pain, and said seriously, "why don''t I catch you and make meritorious service?" "You..." the man glared at Ye Chenyu angrily. "Even if you commit crimes and meritorious deeds, you will go to jail. Why do you have to pull me?" Paused, "I''ll cover every crime for you. Is that how you treat me?!" "Tut tut..." Ye Chenyu shook his head and then waved a fist on the face. "Well" came, and the man only felt that there was a fishy and sweet smell in his mouth. He vomited ''poof'', and one of his teeth was spat out with blood. Chen Yu turned his eyes with disgust on his face. "It''s really heavy to start!" "Indeed!" Ye Haoyang also secretly grinned and even touched his mouth. "Fortunately, it didn''t hit me in the face..." Chen Yu looked at ye Haoyang with disgust, walked over, took the handcuffs and roasted the man. "Dare to play with the police..." Chen Shuo sneered, "you''ll feel better." "You police beat people, I want to complain to you!" Seeing that he could not escape, the man said gnashing his teeth. "Hit you?" Chen Yu smiled, "we didn''t hit you..." "Why, do you think you can pretend to be blind?" Chen Yu looked innocent and looked at Ye Chenyu, who was slovenly. "He''s not a policeman. He''s just a citizen. When he saw the police arrest people, he just helped them do justice!" When she said this, she looked at Ye Chenyu with a smile from beginning to end. Ye Chenyu got up. "Chen Ju, remember to give me a good citizen award or something..." paused. "Of course, it''s better to give some bonuses or something. That''s more realistic." After a pause, he smiled with evil charm in his mouth and said, "no way, I''m old and old. I want to marry a daughter-in-law... I''m short of money!" "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth, stared at Ye Chenyu and picked up the criminal. That man is not a fool. At first sight, these two people know each other. Ye Chenyu seemed to see through his mind, leaned forward slightly and whispered sympathetically, "sorry, my daughter-in-law is the one next to you..." He gave himself a chance, but he didn''t think of it. Seeing the straight smoke on the face, ye Chenyu smiled more. "Tell me about you. Why do you have to frame me? Don''t say it''s useless. Even if it''s true, do you think my daughter-in-law will catch me?!" "You..." "What are you?!" Ye Chenyu smiled angrily, "next time you drag people into the water, remember to see some facts." "This is for public and private use!" The man said coldly, "I''ll complain to you." "Complain..." Ye Chenyu deliberately lengthened his voice, straightened up and picked Chen Yu on his chin. "Here, she is a policeman. You can complain to her..." As soon as the man heard it, he only felt that his Qi and blood surged violently. He has never seen such a person, as if from beginning to end, no matter what you say or do, this person is invincible. Chen Shuo chuckled at the corners of her mouth and liked her Uncle Ye, who was so angry that he didn''t pay for his life. In due time, the police officers who had been chasing the man used to cover up came back and escorted the man. Today, I almost made a mistake again. Fortunately, ye Haoyang finally found something wrong and she and he came after me But if it weren''t for ye Chenyu, this man must have run away again tonight. "Take them back!" Chen Yu opened his mouth. After seeing someone taken away, she suddenly lost her ability. Some little girls looked at Ye Chenyu with a smile, "I have to interrogate at night, so I can''t go back..." "It''s all right. I''ll wait to send you supper!" Ye Chenyu rubbed Chen Yu''s head. Chen Yu smiled deeply at the corners of his mouth and narrowed his eyes. "It''s not good to send it to me alone!" Ye Chenyu couldn''t laugh or cry, "you people who eat imperial food pit me as a common people, isn''t it good?!" Chen Yu smiled but did not speak, and his face was cute. Ye Chenyu sighed helplessly, "the criminal police have......" paused and looked at ye Haoyang, "do you want a drink?" "There''s a trial at night, no!" Ye Haoyang said. Ye Chenyu rolled his eyes. "I mean coffee!" "..." ye Haoyang twitched at the corners of his mouth and knew that he was fooled by Ye Chenyu. "Then I''ll go back to the bureau first..." regardless of Ye Haoyang''s presence, Chen Yu stood on tiptoe and kissed Ye Chenyu on his bearded face. He was disgusted when he was near, "tie very well!" Looking at Chen Yu''s small nose, ye Chenyu sighed and motioned, "go back quickly!" Chen Yu nodded, turned around and left with ye Haoyang. "I didn''t expect you to have such an open and little woman side." Ye Haoyang looked back at Ye Chenyu who was still standing in place. Chen Yu glanced at ye Haoyang lightly, "of course you don''t know, you''re not ye Chenyu!" In a word, the choking ye Haoyang only felt his scalp numb. This woman The red and blue lights of the police car are particularly eye-catching at night. With the help of criminal psychology experts, the criminal police team of the Eastern District has solved the case that has been a headache in the Southern District, which not only makes the Ministry of public security pay attention to psychological crime, but also makes the Eastern District write a strong addition in Los Angeles. Ye Chenyu ordered a night snack to go to the East District, and also guaranteed brother Shui to come out. In fact, detaining brother Shui is just a plan "Ah Yu, it''s good to have time, ha ha..." brother Shui is in a good mood. "Your sister-in-law and your big niece will arrive tomorrow morning. I''ll go back and clean up myself!" He patted Ye Chenyu on the shoulder, "thank you!" "No need to thank you..." Ye Chenyu, with a cigarette in his mouth and a mobile phone, didn''t know what to say. "Remember to write the cost of solving the case and the deposit for my bail to my account... I''ve sent you a text message about the account number and how much money." Just then, there was a ''ding'' sound from brother Shui''s mobile phone. "Isn''t this a case solved by the police?!" Brother Shui tried to cheat. Ye Chenyu smiled. "I can''t see any money in my account before noon tomorrow. Do you think I''ll let you in again?" With that, he picked the door of the police station under his chin. Water elder brother Dang immediately grinned and laughed, "I can''t stand a joke in order to get money to marry a daughter-in-law..." Chapter 1188 Brother Shui is a righteous man. Although he said that the case was solved by the east district police station, he also knew that ye Chenyu had a lot of efforts to solve the case so quickly. Brother Shui left first, and ye Chenyu then drove away. Overnight, Chen Yu and ye Haoyang cooperated with each other. They tried both hard and soft to defeat the criminal psychologically, and finally decided the case. Early morning. Los Angeles cooled again, and the overcast sky fell autumn rain when the sky was bright. Ye Chenyu drove to the police station in a dusty car and didn''t go in Looking at the time, I estimated that Chen Yu had not finished his work. He simply put his seat, lay back in the car, turned on the air conditioner and closed his eyes for a nap. In order to block the man these days, he didn''t have a good rest. It was cold outside and hot inside the car. After a while, he fell asleep. When he woke up, Chen Yu fell asleep lying on the co pilot''s seat. Ye Chenyu didn''t move, so he looked at Chen Yu''s sleeping face. When did she get on the bus? He didn''t know?! Generally speaking, ye Chenyu''s alertness is extremely high. Xu was in the yard of the police station, and Xu was disturbed by the "crackling" of the rain outside, so that under such circumstances, coupled with fatigue, he completely put down his guard. Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu quietly. He didn''t have a good rest for handling cases in recent days, and Chen didn''t either! Chen Yu slept a little uncomfortable. He hit his lips and turned his body slightly The rain is getting heavier and heavier, knocking on the car, blocking the line of sight inside and outside. With a cry of "um", Chen Xuan twisted his eyebrows, raised his hand and rubbed his eyes, and slowly opened them Hazy eyes looked at Ye Chenyu and looked at her with a smile. Chen Chen first moved his eyes numbly, and then woke up "Uncle Ye, I''m on vacation..." Chen''s voice was soft and waxy when he just woke up. "Huh?" Ye Chenyu is light. Chen Yu sucked. He fell asleep with the air conditioner blowing. His dry, slightly blocked nose raised the corner of his mouth and said, "the director gave me a holiday and asked me to go with you to prepare for the wedding..." "What''s next?" Ye Chenyu had some accidents. Chen Yu raised his eyebrows and said, "give it to Zhang Chao." Zhang Chao is the vice captain of the criminal police team. He sits up step by step and is also a capable person. Ye Chenyu smiled and rubbed Chen Yu''s head. "That feeling is good. Let''s go home and have a good sleep and get the certificate tomorrow!" Then he adjusted his seat and fastened his seat belt. When Chen Yu heard that he would go to get the certificate tomorrow, he couldn''t hide his smile. "And then?" Chen Yu asked softly. Ye Chenyu turned on the wiper. "Of course, I went to take wedding photos..." he looked at the weather outside. "This day, I don''t know how many days will it take?!" There was a little complaint in his voice. If it rains all the time, there''s no way to shoot the location. It''s always a little regrettable Chen Yu''s heart is full of happiness. His Uncle Ye can think of everything, and she doesn''t have to worry about it. Just Happy Chen Yu frowned when he found that the road was not the way back to his apartment. "What are we going to do?" Chen Chen instinctively asked, "don''t you mean to go home and sleep?" Hearing her question, ye Chenyu immediately smiled, "little girl, how much do you want to sleep with me for a few days?" Chen Teng''s face turned red. She had asked unintentionally, but ye Chenyu said so, which really made people daydream! Wrinkle your nose, skim your mouth "Yes, yes, that is, I want to sleep with you, not you want to sleep with me..." Chen''s voice was obviously dissatisfied. Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu and smiled mysteriously, but he didn''t say anything. "Fart!" Chen Yu frowned and looked out of the window. He didn''t intend to ignore Ye Chenyu. Anyway, her Uncle Ye won''t sell her! The car turned into a small area near the east district police station, which looked big and had a good environment. After entering the community, ye Chenyu directly drove away from the underground garage Under the huge garage, I turned several corners before stopping at the parking space next to the elevator entrance of a floor. "Get off!" Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Yu and took the lead in unbuttoning his seat belt and getting off the bus. Chen Yu got off with doubts, looked around and followed Ye Chenyu''s footsteps I seem to think about it, but I don''t think it''s possible. With a Ding, the elevator arrived. Ye Chenyu pulled Chen Yu, who was wandering too empty, into the elevator. Looking at the little girl''s thoughtful appearance, he just felt funny. When he reached the floor, ye Chenyu took out the house key and put it in Chen''s hand. He picked the position of the lower door with his chin. Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu suspiciously and opened the door with the key However, the moment the door opened, Chen Yu was stunned. For a moment, he didn''t know how to react. From the porch, rose petals were spread on the ground, and there were two pairs of slippers at the door. A pair of dark blue and a pair of rose pink. Chen Yu took off his shoes, put on his rose pink slippers, put down his bag on the porch shelf, stepped on the rose petals and walked inside The style is Mediterranean, and the water blue everywhere makes the whole space look clean and bright. And this style is her favorite style. Her apartment was bought by her father. She used to live in it once in a while when she came back to China. She didn''t tangle with the decoration style. Because of the reality of Ye Chenyu, Chen proposed that they live in her apartment after marriage, and ye Chenyu didn''t object. When did he get here?! Chen Shuo''s lips and eyes are slightly red. Looking at the house with a very atmospheric spatial pattern, he can''t tell what his mood is at the moment. However, Chen didn''t expect that waking up was not just a little bit. When she saw a heart made of delicate red roses on the floor of the living room with a teddy bear she loved in the middle, a thin mist filled her eyes. Ye Chenyu came forward, picked up the teddy bear, handed it to Chen Yu, and pinched the teddy bear''s stomach "Welcome the hostess home! Welcome the hostess home!" The voice of the teddy bear came. Chen Yu looked at the teddy bear and looked at Ye Chenyu "Little girl, welcome to our common home!" Ye Chenyu''s mouth was full of evil laughter, and his voice was full of charm. Chen Shu''s eyelashes trembled slightly, raised his eyes, looked at Ye Chenyu, and asked in a loud voice, "Uncle Ye, where did you get the money to buy a house? It seems very expensive here..." she sniffed, "you can''t afford such a big house after only doing a single business!" Ye Chenyu couldn''t laugh or cry. Chen Chen was moved, but was her attention wrong now?! Shouldn''t we jump on him, hug him, kiss him, move him, and then directly fall on him?! Thinking of this, ye Chenyu looked at Chen and asked, "little girl, I''m moved in another way, for example... Directly hungry wolves rush at food?!" Chapter 1189 On hearing this, Chen Shu not only did not break his tears into laughter, but tears "rustled" out. Ye Chenyu sighed, put the teddy bear on the tea table, came forward and hugged Chen Yu in his arms Chen Yu sucked his nose in Ye Chenyu''s arms and tightened Ye Chenyu''s waist. Ye Chenyu tore his chin and rubbed the top of Chen Yu''s hair. In a soft voice, he said, "although there is no way to let you live a life like your uncle, you don''t need to worry about money..." He tightened his circle a little, "but I want to give you everything I can." He kissed at the top of Chen''s hair, "proposal ring, wedding house, wedding photo, wedding... Chen, I don''t want to lose your memory." Chen Chen''s tears couldn''t stop flowing out. They were happy tears, full of sweetness, "what about the wedding ring?" The voice of hem and haw was coquettish. Ye Chenyu shook his head with a smile and said, "yes!" "Uncle Ye," Chen Yu''s voice murmured fiercely. She looked up and looked at Ye Chenyu with tearful eyes and said, "you are so kind to me, I think I love you too little..." Chen Yu, I''ll let go of my bed ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu was originally moved, but he was annoyed by Ye Chenyu''s Rogue words, "Ye Chenyu, are you filled with colored things all day?" "I can''t help it. I''ve been holding it for a few days..." After ye Chenyu said that, regardless of Chen Yu''s angry appearance, he grabbed her and walked to the bedroom, "hostess, let''s try if the new bed can bear our sports..." With that, ye Chenyu "threw" Chen Yu onto the bed, and then, like a hungry wolf, the whole person pressed up "Little girl," said Ye Chenyu, burying his head in Chen''s neck, "how about my uncle singing you the legend of hungry wolf?" "Can you sing?" Chen Yu was tickled by Ye Chenyu and didn''t respond. Ye Chenyu tore impatiently, "of course..." he raised his head slightly, looked at Chen Yu with evil eyes, and said in a hoarse voice, "he can not only sing the legend of hungry wolves, Uncle Ye''s wolves, but also drill holes!" "..." Chen Yu immediately reacted to what ye Chenyu said, "hooligan!" Ye Chenyu smiled at the evil ruffian without any prelude. While "gnawing" at Chen Yu, he said, "sing..." Chen Yu was suddenly "singing" by him, clenched his teeth angrily, raised his head slightly, and took another bite on Ye Chenyu''s shoulder. Of course, this time, ye Chenyu has the experience of the last three seconds. Chen Yu must not make another joke. "Is it a dog?! it''s addictive..." Ye Chenyu said, "Hey, I''m a wolf, but you''re a dog. I won''t be a wolf dog in the future!" "..." Chen Yu rolled his eyes. "Do you ever say that about your children yourself?" "My child must be a little wolf dog, who can laugh and subdue people!" Ye Chenyu didn''t think much of it. "I''ll work harder today and let our dragon and Phoenix wolf cubs accompany me to the wedding!" Chen Chen''s face has been flushed by Ye Chenyu''s shameless words and the action of forcible seizure. In particular, other people are obsessed with the fetus of dragon and Phoenix, which makes Chen cry and laugh. Twins can also think about it. The probability of dragon and Phoenix fetus is too small?! "Brag!" Make complaints about Chen''s mouth. Ye Chenyu grinned and pecked Chen Yu''s mouth. "I call it ability and self-confidence..." Then, he increased the range of action, as if to tell Chen that he was really capable! Here, the spring breeze in the new house is infinite The rain outside is also full of sentiment everywhere. Such a day, for the petty bourgeoisie, is most suitable for a cup of coffee, a book, sitting in a rocking chair and quietly enjoying life But for those who are sad about spring and autumn, such a rainy day is the most sad to recall. Mother Ye stood in front of the window, watching the rain falling outside, and gradually lost her mind. "I''ll take it as if I hadn''t given birth to your daughter... Why are you so cheap to be a junior to others?!" "Pa!" A hard slap fell, and the whole world became quiet in the rain. Mother Ye raised her hand and gently stroked her left cheek At that time, she was still a vibrant college graduate. Now, her son is getting married soon After so many years, it seems that I can''t remember anything calmly. But as people grow older, they gradually begin to like memories. No matter what was good or bad in the past... Up to now, it can arouse a shallow smile. Perhaps, this is what Mo Huai said in those years. When you are old, the past with memories is life. The rain outside didn''t stop at all. After this rain, Los Angeles will gradually enter late autumn Mother Ye looked back, turned around, took the mobile phone on the tea table and dialed Ye Chenyu. These two people will get married in ten days. Don''t worry?! Ye Chenyu''s cell phone kept shaking in his pocket, ''buzzing''. "The mobile phone rings..." "No matter!" "What if something happens?!" Ye Chenyu continued to work hard to capture the city. "If you are on vacation, I will also prepare for the wedding. I won''t take the order!" "Answer the phone first..." "No, I''m almost there..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu was speechless again by Uncle Ye''s hooligans! She tried hard to make people here. Seeing that ye Chenyu didn''t answer the phone and thought she was busy, she didn''t continue to call. She just sent a text message urging her to get her marriage certificate first. Then, mother ye called Chen again and thought about taking her to buy some wedding supplies and clothes at the weekend. The son is too busy to adjust. As a mother, she naturally has to worry about it. Unfortunately, the son doesn''t answer, and the future daughter-in-law doesn''t answer "It''s getting married. Both of them are busy!" Mother Ye looked helpless. But at the moment, where does mother ye know that her son and daughter-in-law are really busy, busy making grandchildren for her "Ding Dong!" There was a doorbell. Mother Ye frowned slightly and got up to look at the visual doorbell. A man in a half length Khaki windbreaker was holding a big black umbrella. It was raining heavily outside. The man''s face was covered by an umbrella except his chin Mother Ye wondered. She''s in Los Angeles. She hardly knows anyone. After Mo Huai left, Beichen came occasionally. Now there are more Shaochen and them Mother Ye pressed the call with doubts, "who are you looking for?" "Yejun ballad." Mother Ye''s face changed several times when she heard her name. She even looked at the figure in the visual doorbell excitedly, "who are you?" "It''s raining so hard outside. Aren''t you going to let me in first?" The man seemed a little helpless. He lifted his umbrella slightly, and his whole face was exposed in the sight of mother ye Chapter 1190 After mother Ye pressed the key to open the door, she hurried to open the door of the house. Tears were already shining in her eyes. Looking at the man with an umbrella getting closer and closer, the whole heart seemed to jump out Ye Haoyang went up the steps, first looked at the excited look of mother ye, then calmly put away the umbrella and put it aside. "Come on, come in..." mother Ye hurried to greet ye Haoyang, obviously excited and a little overwhelmed, "do you want coffee or tea?" "Aunt, I''ll just drink water..." said Ye Haoyang. Mother Ye forgot her reaction for a moment when she listened to what ye Haoyang said. When she said "aunt", mother ye only felt the position of her heart. Because she was too excited and jumped too hard, she couldn''t control it. Ye Haoyang looked around the circle villa and then looked at his mother. Mother Ye reacted and smiled and poured water for ye Haoyang. "You look like Hugh!" Mother Ye''s eyes are a little red. "It seems that this is the last time I saw him." After a pause, she asked, "what''s your name?" "Aunt, my name is Haoyang..." ye Haoyang answered with a smile. Mother Ye''s eyes are redder. The Ye family is a big family, not a rich family, but a scholarly family. At the beginning, she and ah Xiu were one and a half years away, so the relationship between her sister and brother had always been very good. But it''s also because of the best. After she followed Mo Huai, ah Xiu hated her most. Mother Ye was a little embarrassed. She endured it again and again. Then she asked, "Haoyang, you......" she shook her hand nervously. "Did you go home alone?" She wanted to ask, did your father and grandpa come back this time?! However, if you get to the mouth, you can''t ask. "I was invited back this time." Ye Haoyang saw through mother Ye''s mind and said, "Dad, they don''t know I''m looking for my aunt." "Oh..." mother Ye felt empty when she heard it. But it was only an instant, she recovered, pulled the corners of her mouth and said, "let''s eat here at noon?! I''ll cook..." "Aunt, don''t be busy." Ye Haoyang said, "I have something to do later. I just came to see you." "Well..." mother Ye couldn''t hide her loss in her eyes. Looking at her like this, ye Haoyang couldn''t bear it. "Well, if it''s not troublesome, I can go after dinner." "No trouble, no trouble!" Mother ye said quickly, "I''ll steam the rice first and cook you some Los Angeles specialties at noon..." "Good!" Ye Haoyang answered and saw his mother go to the kitchen happily. Ye''s mother makes it very fast. Over the years, because ye Chenyu''s time is too uncertain and has something to do at any time, she has trained that she can quickly use local materials to make several delicious dishes. Looking at the four dishes on the table, ye Haoyang suddenly felt, "they are all dad''s favorite..." "There aren''t many things at home, and I didn''t ask you if you like it!" Mother Ye is a little hesitant. Ye Haoyang smiled. "I like... I listen to my father nagging every day and say I miss the taste of Los Angeles." "Yeah?!" Mother Ye''s voice showed a trace of loss under forbearance. Ye Haoyang studied psychology in the end, and suddenly saw through her mother''s heart. As he ate, he talked about his father and them Time, little by little. In the twinkling of an eye, a meal took more than an hour. Mother Ye has red eyes. Listening to her helpless loss of family affection over the years, she has an unspeakable taste in her heart. "Aunt," said Ye Haoyang, looking at his mother, "Dad has always been thinking about you... But, you know, he is very stubborn, so..." "I know!" Mother Ye''s eyes were tearful, but the corners of her mouth smiled. "We were together all day at that time, how could we not know his character." The Ye family is a scholar family. Although she didn''t mean to, she did something of a third party This is hard for Dad and Hugh to accept. She didn''t blame them, but she was very sad at the thought that she and her family were separated at both ends of the earth after so many years. Ye Haoyang felt a little heavy. Every time it rains, dad always turns over a photo book that is about to turn rotten. Inside, it was all photographed by dad who liked photography when he was young and used his aunt as a model. Dad misses his aunt very much, and so does grandpa! So, this time when L.A. invited him, he came back He wanted to see this aunt who had been thought of by his grandfather and father, but had been frozen away from each other all his life. ¡­¡­ It''s raining less outside. The whole world is noisy under the rain, but it seems very quiet. "Mr. Gu, it seems that you haven''t gone to the company from yesterday to today..." Jane Mo held her waist and paced back and forth in the living room to eat. She looked at Gu Beichen, who lazily held a book and leaned on the sofa to read. Gu Beichen didn''t lift his head, "Xiao Jing is back." Jian Mo stopped and looked at her family with a smile. "I heard that Zhao Qianyu and Xiao Jing have made new progress this time?" "Yes." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo lightly, and the ink pupil wrote: I knew you didn''t ask me whether I went to work or not, but wanted to gossip! Jane Mo walked to Gu Beichen with a small step, and sat down beside him with the help of Gu Beichen. "Where is it?" Jane Mo asked with bright eyes. "Mo''er..." "Huh?" Gu Beichen gently stroked Jian Mo''s stomach and joked, "if you gossip like this, my baby won''t grow up. Will you be a gossip reporter?" "..." when Jian Mo heard this, the corners of his mouth twitched and looked at Beichen angrily. "I''m not gossip. I care about the people around me, okay?" She was dissatisfied and said, "in the future, my baby must be a considerate, considerate and caring little peach!" Gu Beichen smiled with thin lips. That smile was relaxed and casual. "You haven''t said what happened to them!" Jian Mo doesn''t give Gu Zong his empty words. Gu Beichen sighed and said, "Xiao Jing, who has always made two mistakes, is estimated to be doomed!" "It''s been less than a month. It''s done?" Jane Mo wondered, "doesn''t it seem that he didn''t pretend to be in place before?" "..." Gu Beichen has a headache. "Considering prenatal education, I think you''ve been less mixed up with Shen Chu recently." "What''s the matter?" Jane didn''t react for a moment. Gu Beichen said calmly, "she has a quarrel with the director all day. Her mouth is more and more popular. Haven''t you noticed that you''ve been getting dark lately?" "..." Jane Mo pulled at the corner of her mouth. "Obviously, I''m old and can''t keep up with the times. I have to say that Jane Mo talks about the market." In time, J came down from upstairs and make complaints about it. He said, "I have classes tomorrow morning, I will wait for school, and I will not come back at night." "Drive carefully on the road!" Jane Mo explained. "I see, mom!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Jane foam was not full of face immediately. J changed his shoes and opened the door. He saw the guard of the villa hurried over with an umbrella and something in his arms "Whose express?" J asked casually. The guard handed it to j, "it''s Mrs. Shao''s!" J looked, and the font on it was familiar to him Turned and entered the room again, "Jian Mo, your express..." J deliberately provocatively looked at Gu Beichen, "it seems to be Qin Shao!" Chapter 1191 Jane was stunned and immediately wanted to get up and get it. Can just move, Gu Beichen gently grabbed her and said in a dissatisfied voice, "you don''t bother to get up and sit down?" "No!" Jane Mo didn''t notice that there was a strange emotion in Gu Beichen''s voice, but said, "I''ve been pregnant with three, and I''m very comfortable..." "..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at Jian Mo who didn''t understand the style at all. Jun''s face was a little black. "I''ll bring it to you..." J walked in, and make complaints about it. "I said Jane foam, how did you grow up? Did you see that Beichen didn''t care about you at all?" "Are you sad if you don''t crush my IQ all day?" Jane Mo glared at J, then turned back and smiled at Gu Beichen, "President Gu?" Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo lightly, and his eyes continued to fall on the book. "If someone is willing to give gifts, what do I dislike? I''m afraid that the things inside will despise..." "Gifts don''t care about value, just mind!" J handed the express to Jian Mo, "open it and see what it is?" Jane first shook the box, a little heavy. Jian Mo took the scissors delivered by J and disassembled the express. Gu Beichen''s sight had fallen on the express box. Soon, Jane took it apart. Inside is a very beautiful gift box. Orange sunflowers "open" all over the box. In such a rainy day, it is full of the smell of sunshine. Jian Mo seemed to be in a much better mood, but Gu Beichen, who was nearby, snorted. Jane Mo opens the gift box, which is packed separately. There are more than a dozen bags of sunflower seeds. On each bag, there are beautiful and exquisite small tags "Rose flavor, caramel flavor, vanilla flavor, kiwi fruit flavor..." Jian Mo looked at the flavor one by one, "and cumin barbecue flavor?! cumin barbecue melon seeds? Roasted mutton kebabs..." J saw that it was sunflower seeds again and had no interest. "Take your time and I''ll go first." "Well..." Jane Mo answered perfunctorily and continued to look. Each bag of melon seeds has different tastes, some of which are common and some of which she has never heard of. It feels like dark cooking. "Bang..." After Gu Beichen made a "sigh" sound, he took back his sight and continued to read. His voice was disdainful and said, "I''ll send you melon seeds, he also sends them, and even sends them... That''s all he can do." "It''s so sour..." Jane Mo wrinkled her nose. "Mr. Gu, it''s very awkward for a man to be jealous!" "Do I need to be jealous?" Gu Beichen''s voice was lazy without too much emotion. While turning the pages, he said coldly, "my wife, he can only send some melon seeds to brush the sense of existence." Jane Mo glanced, "ah Chen, have you noticed that you seem to have a strange tone when talking about him this time?" Jian Mo actually said it unintentionally, but Gu Beichen''s eyes stagnated. I thought Xiao Yan was still alive and chased Shi Shaoqin half the world, but in the end, it was empty Is there any resentment in his heart?! Gu Beichen put down the book and looked at Jian Mo with eagle eyes. "Does he deliberately respond to me? I still think he did it right?" "Hee hee, too!" Jane Mo opened the rose flavored melon seed bag and put one in her mouth. Suddenly, the smell of roses in the mouth was not dried by dryer, but naturally dried in the sun. "Delicious!" Jian Mo seemed to have discovered the new world and began to open it one by one. She found that some of them looked like dark food, but they tasted very good. Even if Jianmo is not a gourmet, you can feel that the weight of each taste depends on the seasoning. Gu Beichen watched Jian Mo eat happily and had a headache. "Don''t eat too many melon seeds at once..." Gu Beichen reminded, his voice filled with discontent. But I don''t know whether Jian Mo has been dissatisfied with eating melon seeds, or whether Jian Mo is happy to eat melon seeds sent by Shi Shaoqin! "I''ll eat some more..." Jian Mo is really greedy. "Ah Chen, you can eat it too. It''s really delicious..." she said and threw another one into her mouth. "Hey? Should I tell Shi Shaoqin it''s delicious? Will he get me more? I can also let Xiangwan, Shen Chu and Susan taste it!" "..." Gu Beichen''s face is really black this time. "Jian Mo, if you want to eat melon seeds with such a messy taste, can''t I satisfy you?" Jian Mo''s action of eating melon seeds stopped. She watched Gu Beichen fan her eyelashes, and then laughed Before, her family''s general manager Gu was actually fine. Now it seems that she is really jealous. Jane Mo was tired of falling on Gu Beichen, and Gu Beichen grabbed her. Jian Mo''s head turned sideways, with melon seeds in her mouth, so she went to kiss Gu Beichen. "I don''t feel sick..." Gu Beichen said this, but he directly hooked his tongue and turned Jian Mo''s kiss into a deep kiss. Jane Mo smiled at the affectionate president Gu and responded warmly. Just When general manager Gu was set on fire, Jian Mo calmly cleaned up the melon seeds and said, "I won''t eat today. I''ll put it away first and eat it tomorrow..." "..." Gu Beichen was very uncomfortable. He looked at Jane Morse''s deliberately bad appearance, and his whole face was not like words. But who is Gu Beichen?! How can he let Jian Mo find him unhappy with Shi Shaoqin and let him do it by himself?! Gu Beichen picked up Jian Mo directly "President Gu, what are you doing?" Jane Mo smiled at Gu Beichen with a black face. Gu Beichen didn''t speak, so he walked to the bedroom with Jian Mo in his arms "Yunze said, you can''t do it before you are born!" Jane reminded me. "If you don''t, it''s not that you can''t help me..." "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth, "Mr. Gu, this is not in line with your high and cold setting." "The first time I handed it over to manual. What are the settings?" Gu Beichen answered like a stream. "But it''s inconvenient for me to have a big stomach!" "Well, if you sit, I''ll just stand..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Jane Mo''s face turned red when she heard this. Sure enough, no matter whether it''s cold or evil, domineering or elegant, men will only become animals in that regard! Or all kinds of animals with different patterns! ¡­¡­ The rain was pattering outside. The rain beat on the glass window, masking Gu Beichen''s comfortable voice Unlike the cold air in Los Angeles, the sunset in Mo palace is infinitely good. The air is completely warm and the warm sea breeze makes people comfortable. Shi Shaoqin took star''s small hand and strolled along the beach. A large and a small figure was pulled long by the sunset. "Today, my aunt should have received star''s gift..." Shi Shaoqin looked ahead and opened his mouth. Star looked up. "Who''s aunt?" Shi Shaoqin stopped, squatted down and looked at star, said again in a gentle voice, "he is a very important person for star and stone..." Chapter 1192 Time always flies under the busy of joy. The rain in Los Angeles continued for two days. Originally, it was just a thin shirt. Suddenly, the temperature was so low that you had to wear a coat to go out. But such a low temperature will not affect the enthusiasm of Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu. Go to the Civil Affairs Bureau to get the marriage certificate and take a set of wedding photos full of police feel Some people in the bureau are easy to handle. Lu Bureau heard that ye Chenyu and Chen Yu want to take wedding photos with the police as their back. They can immediately approve them. They can borrow the vehicles and venues of the eastern special police force and the eastern police station without affecting the police. The police uniform with two bars and three-star epaulets, Chen Yu, is opposite Ye Chenyu, who is wearing a special police combat uniform Ye Chenyu, who is wearing a special police combat suit, is opposite Chen Yu, who is wearing a white bra and fishtail wedding dress Wearing a police uniform, Chen Yu is against Ye Chenyu, a "gangster" with evil ruffians Special police combat vehicles, police vehicles, police motorcycles Each theme is full of their love for the cause of the police and the process of falling in love with each other. If ye Chenyu is not a policeman because of his current identity, after watching the sample film, they all want to use their wedding photos as publicity photos for recruiting police The wedding, which began with Chen Yu''s vacation, only lasted more than ten days. The busy work before the wedding made Chen Yu and ye Chenyu break into several copies for more than ten days. Of course, the main thing is not only busy preparing for the wedding, but also ye Chenyu''s so-called human creation plan. "Elder sister, I didn''t expect you, the overlord of the police force, to have such a love of red makeup..." Chen Feng looked at the wedding dress Chen Yu would wear tomorrow morning, with a novel look on his face. "In fact, how beautiful our Chinese wedding dress is. Why do we all wear wedding dress when we get married?!" Xie Zhenru smiled and looked at her son, "if you like it, you can also marry your daughter-in-law later!" "No, I don''t want to give my life so early like my sister..." Chen Feng refused with a face. Chen Yu glanced at him, looked at the customized ring ye Chenyu proposed to him, and said Yin: "of course you don''t want to... After all, you can''t find a perfect partner like my Uncle Ye!" "Vomit..." Chen Feng couldn''t stand it. "Sister, I beg you, don''t treat meat hemp as fun!" Chen Yu turned his mouth and didn''t mind Chen Feng''s attitude at all. "There''s no way. You just envy, envy and hate your brother-in-law..." That''s the truth. In addition to Chen Yu, Chen Feng definitely likes Ye Chenyu most. At first, I thought the brother-in-law had a way to treat his father. Later, I found that the brother-in-law could play hard game copies with him, ride a bike and climb mountains with him, and go to bars together Don''t say Chen Yu likes it, he likes it too! Xie Zhenru watched her sister and brother bicker and kept pursing her lips and smiling. How long hasn''t Xiao Yu been so happy? From the human traffickers took her away to the sacrifice of Police Officer Lin, Xiao Yu has never been so happy again. That ye Chenyu, however, can make Xiaohe return to the Xiaohe who is coquettish and often has a smile on his face. At this point, ye Chenyu''s son-in-law, she and Lao Chen will feel good. "Hey, in a twinkling of an eye, I''m going to get married..." Xie Zhenru sighed happily, but her nose was a little sour. Since Chen Yu entered the public security university, he has hardly been around them for a few days. Finally looking forward to the special training to return home, but the fast love is about to get married. Parents are reluctant to let their daughter leave their side and are happy that she can find a good home I''m afraid all parents are the same. Chen Yu''s nose immediately became sour when Xie Zhenru said this As soon as Chen Feng saw it, he said with a headache: "anyway, my sister doesn''t get married and doesn''t live at home... Mom, don''t make it seem that my sister will disappear when she gets married." Xie Zhenru glared at Chen Feng angrily, "I have to do it!" "Mom, if you want, this daughter is married, and her son-in-law usually comes back frequently in order to please her mother-in-law..." Chen Feng said, "I''m not sure. You''ll have more chances to see your sister later than when she was single!" "You know very well?" Chen Yu was said by Chen Feng, and there was no pain just coming out. He joked, "it seems that you will always run to your mother-in-law in the future." "Sister, can we be kind?" Chen Feng was speechless. "I''ll help you. You''re digging a hole for me!" Xie Zhenru was immediately amused when she saw her son''s "anger" on his face The three were laughing and talking. Chen Qishan knocked on the door and came in with a rectangular box in his hand. "I''ll go down and cut some fruit..." Xie Zhenru and Chen Qishan looked at each other and said. "Mom, I''ll accompany you!" Chen Feng pushed Xie Zhenru out of Chen Yu''s room. "Dad..." Chen Qishan nodded and sat down beside Chen. He looked at the red wedding dress spread out on the bed and sighed with satisfaction, "my little girl is an adult and knows to think of others..." Chen Chen also looked at Xifu and looked at the corners of his mouth. Ye Chenyu''s mother used to be a scholarly woman. How much did she bear because of love?! She didn''t wait for the wedding or wear wedding clothes in her life She wants to make up for her mother-in-law''s regret! Listening to Chen Qishan''s rambling words, Chen Yu is nothing more than a married man or an adult. What should he do in the future. Naturally, if ye Chenyu bullies her, she won''t hold back. She will come back and tell her family Lao Chen to clean up Ye Chenyu. There will be no shortage of such instructions. "Dad, he won''t bully me..." Chen Yu''s eyes were filled with tears. "Well, I dare not measure that boy!" Chen Qishan sighed again. "I''m sure Ye Chenyu is a good man... I''m relieved to give you to him." After all, Chen Yu couldn''t help crying around Chen Qishan''s arm. "Dad, I''m sorry..." "Silly girl, why do you say sorry?" "For so many years, I have not let myself go, but also made you and your mother worry about me all the time..." "You are our daughter. Isn''t it normal for parents to worry about their children?" Chen Yu''s eyes were red and his arms tightened around Lao Chen. "Dad, I love you!" Chen Qishan has a pair of noses and red eyes. He almost didn''t fall down because of Chen Yu''s sentence ''I love you''. His daughter is his treasure. She will get married tomorrow He will put her hand into Ye Chenyu''s hand, and it will be ye Chenyu''s in the future! At the thought of this, Lao Chen felt bad in his heart. "Dad doesn''t have anything to give you as a dowry..." Chen Qishan patted his daughter on the back to comfort her and handed the box to Chen. "There are three real estate properties here and 30% of the group shares in my name..." "Dad!" Chen Yu frowned. Chen Qishan sighed, "I know, you don''t care about these... But just be a little bit of the heart of your father and mother!" Chen Yu looked at Chen Qishan and his tears fell uncontrollably. I don''t know why, she seems to find out now that her father seems to be much older... But she hasn''t found it before! Chapter 1193 Different from the slight sadness under the happiness of the Chen family at the moment, mother Ye''s villa is full of a happy atmosphere everywhere. Tomorrow''s wedding, Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu''s wedding car will start from mother ye to pick up the two brides. For mother ye, isn''t that another kind of perfection?! "Didn''t Xiao Mo come?" When mother ye saw Gu Beichen coming alone, she asked. "I went to Xiaoyue''s side and said that she is my mother''s family and I am my husband''s family. I''m divided into two tonight..." Gu Beichen''s voice was full of spoil. Mother Ye smiled and said, "Xiaomo and Xiaoyue are just like their sisters, aren''t they?" Then she sighed again, "my best friend married your cousin. It''s very beautiful!" "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered and looked across the living room, "where are you?" "It''s all upstairs!" Mother Ye smiled, "I''ll make you supper. Go up and find them!" "OK..." Gu Beichen answered and went upstairs. Upstairs was very lively. Several friends from Mo Shaochen''s legal circle and ye Chenyu''s special police team shouted happily. But when Gu Beichen saw that ye Chenyu and Mo Shaochen were fighting Street bullies, his cold face showed a touch of helplessness. "General gu!" Qiao Rui took the lead in saying hello. "Coming?!" Ye Chenyu looked at Beichen with a cigarette in his mouth, but his actions didn''t stop. Different from his evil ruffian, Mo Shaochen is solemnly controlling the game console. However, at the moment, Mo Shaochen''s suit is off, and he is sitting on the ground. The sleeve of his shirt has been rolled up to his elbow In that way, where is the usual calm and self-confident debater?! "What are the results?" Gu Beichen asked. Ye Chenyu grinned at the corners of his mouth, "that''s enough to say? When I was in the bottom court, I fought with my brothers when I was all right... I''m the best at other people''s affairs!" Mo Shaochen''s face sank obviously because he lost several in a row. "I''m different from your brothers..." "Yes, yes, you are. They are acting." While ye Chenyu said, the action in his hand didn''t stop at all. "There''s no brother in the game, you still have to go!" Mo Shaochen looked a little heavy and stared at the TV, but he kept controlling it under his hand. Which man didn''t come through the game when he was young? I haven''t played several hot-blooded games. I''m sorry to say I have youth in the field! Gu Beichen looks at the TV. The character''s blood bar controlled by Mo Shaochen is dangerous After only a few ''Bang Bang'' sounds, there was a mechanical sound of "game over". Mo Shaochen''s face was gloomy, especially when he saw Ye Chenyu''s look of "I said, you can''t beat me", he wanted to throw the handle directly into his face! "Beichen, you come!" Mo Shaochen decided to find foreign aid. Ye Chenyu looked at Gu Beichen, "neither can he!" "Oh?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows, "how about some colorful hair? How boring it is to play like this..." When Gu Beichen said this, the whole room burst. Let''s not mention Gu Beichen''s usual cold appearance of standing high and playing fighting games. Now he threw a colorful head. Everyone immediately began to encourage Ye Chenyu to agree. "OK..." Ye Chenyu extinguished the cigarette butts in the ashtray. "What color head?" "Tomorrow you wear a phoenix crown and a sunset!" "..." Ye Chenyu twitched at the corners of his mouth, "what if you lose?" "I''ll wear women''s clothes tomorrow!" "Play so big..." Ye Chenyu smiled at the corners of his mouth, "isn''t it good?!" "Dare not?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows and the eagle''s eyes showed provocation. "Oh, I''m afraid?" Ye Chenyu rolled his eyes. "I''m afraid that as soon as the news comes out tomorrow, the emperor and you Gu Beichen will become a joke..." "I''m not afraid. What are you afraid of?" Gu Beichen took off his suit, threw it on the sofa and untied his shirt sleeve. Ye Chenyu glanced at Mo Shaochen, "two wins in three games, I win, Beichen women''s clothes, Shaochen fengguanxiayu!" "Two to one?" Gu Beichen said softly. There was danger in his voice. Ye Chenyu shrugged. "It''s unfair to make it clear. How about playing?" "OK!" Gu Beichen looked at Mo Shaochen and replied, "I have a person on my back to distract my attention. What do I disagree with..." "..." Mo Shaochen was speechless. Come on, Gu Beichen also sat on the ground. "How long haven''t you played?" Asked Ye Chenyu. "You''ll know how long it will take." Gu Beichen didn''t answer. Ye Chenyu felt confident at the bottom of his eyes. In the past, the most favorite thing for undercover people at the bottom of the hall was to play such fighting games. His skills were so good that most people couldn''t fight. Coupled with professional reasons, how to combine the game with his hand, he is invincible and completely alone! In the first game, there was no suspense. Ye Chenyu knew he could Ko Gu Beichen. Mo Shaochen is a little loveless. The melon eaters began to imagine the appearance of President Gu''s women''s clothes and Mo Shaochen''s Phoenix crown and sunset tomorrow The second inning took longer than the first. Gu Beichen narrowly won! The melon eaters have begun to take things seriously and shout from both sides. After all, no matter which side loses, tomorrow''s wedding can bring "surprise"! Mo Shaochen''s heart has been raised, "Beichen, the last game will win or lose." Ye Chenyu looked relaxed and glanced at Gu Beichen, who was so indifferent from beginning to end. "Tut Tut, I really don''t know what President Gu would look like in women''s clothes. I''m afraid it''s also upside down for all living beings!" "People who look good can hold it." Gu Beichen said faintly. When ye Chenyu heard this, the corners of his mouth twitched. However, he was unable to refute. After all, Gu Beichen''s face is really irrefutable, or it is completely self abuse. The atmosphere is already high and the roof is about to be lifted off. The last game determines tomorrow''s surprise Mother Ye has been so high that she has forgotten herself. Unlike here and the happy sadness of the Chen family, it is obvious that Li Xiaoyue is much easier here. After all, she and Mo Shaochen have been living together for a long time. It can be said that tomorrow is a ceremony. Father and mother Li reconfirmed the things for tomorrow''s wedding in the living room. The girls were chatting in the bedroom. "Nervous?" Jian Mo lies on the lazy sofa and looks at Li Xiaoyue with a smile. "A little..." Li Xiaoyue sighed. "It''s wonderful. It seems that a ceremony is the real marriage to him." "Of course, the Chinese subconsciously think that a wedding is the real wedding..." Chu ran gossip looked at Jian Mo, "sister Mo, I have read the report on your wedding with President gu!" She curled her mouth. "But I''m a little sorry." At the wedding in Los Angeles, Jane Mo finally fainted "I have no regrets..." Jane Mo''s mind gradually emerged in Santiago''s weapons square, the church decorated with blue and white Gobi love wild lilies, and the flowers in the hands of Gobi love wild lilies like blood stained, "my general manager, how can I be allowed to have regrets?" The wedding video was recorded for Li Xiaomo, but it was all for her. "Xiao Yue is right..." Jian Mo looks at Li Xiao Yue. "Just having a marriage certificate is incomplete without a wedding..." Chapter 1194 For any woman, marriage certificate is just a kind of legal certification. A wedding, that''s the real marriage to the other half of your life No matter poor or rich, no woman doesn''t expect a wedding of her own. The next day, the weather was beautiful. Early in the morning, the sun was shining. After the autumn rain cooled down, Los Angeles became hot again. The wedding was held in Fenglin Park in Los Angeles. It was late autumn. The maple leaves were red and intoxicated the whole autumn. The wedding of Mo Shaochen, the first criminal advocate in Los Angeles, and Li Xiaoyue, the upstart criminal advocate, has already attracted the attention of large multimedia and the industry. Today, Mo Shaochen''s brother, who once warned the elite to marry Chen Yu, who is now the overlord of the police and the beloved daughter of the chairman of Chen''s group The wedding of the two newlyweds, whether from business or political and legal circles, is a big man You can imagine how crazy the media are. Unfortunately, the wedding is private. The whole Fenglin park is under security, and even the emperor''s media and television stations cannot enter. Many multimedia can only find a way to catch some people outside. What''s more, they set up a lift or a scaffold, took a high-power lens, and only wanted to capture some fur The wedding scene was bustling. The professional wedding company arranged the wedding scene of Ye Chenyu and Mo Shaochen like a dream. Red maple leaves, slightly yellow but with green grass, rose petals and bouquets, balloons and streamers everywhere Smiles, cheerful voices, in such a wedding, are so wonderful. "The wedding car fleet has arrived..." Someone shouted happily, and everyone turned around and saw the wedding car and the car with relatives and friends slowly parked on the fire lane of the park. The band began to play, and the people who sprinkled flowers and fired salutes were also in place on both sides of the red carpet at the moment the car stopped With a big stomach, Jane Mo got down from the car behind with the help of Gu Beichen. "Hurry up, I''m going to take two photos in front." "..." Gu Beichen twitched at the corner of his mouth, "Mo''er!" Gu Beichen was helpless, but who let him spoil Jian Mo?! Can only take her "fast" to a favorable position. Two cars open All eyes were focused on the car ahead. I saw two grooms, one tall and one short, get off the bus and wear men''s Chinese wedding clothes. They smiled at everyone and then gentlemanly put their hands in the car Everyone was surprised! "What''s going on?!" "What''s going on?" "In laws, this is..." "Eh, sister, is this the day to marry my brother-in-law?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Everyone was surprised to see Chen Yu dressed in men''s clothes, long hair curled up and wearing a domed silk hat. They didn''t know how to react But that''s nothing. When more than 180 Ye Chenyu came out, everyone changed from surprise to laughter. Li Xiaoyue circled Mo Shaochen''s arm, "you play so big?" "In order to let him fall into the pit, I lost face last night..." Mo Shaochen would never say that he was unable to lose to Ye Chenyu in front of his wife. "Beichen, that wife slave, now he can do whatever Jane Mo wants to do for her..." "Why did the girl suddenly want to see Chenyu wear women''s clothes?" Li Xiaoyue didn''t understand and didn''t listen to her last night. "Be careful..." Mo Shaochen raised his eyebrows. "Who made Chenyu laugh at her husband for four and a half years?! this Jian Mo can laugh at her husband, but others can''t... besides, Beichen was laughed at at at the beginning. Can he not find a chance to revenge?" Gu Beichen, who must report, of course wants to find a chance. On the one hand, Jian Mo became restless because of this pregnancy. On the other hand, there are indeed reasons why Mo Shaochen said Gu Beichen will spare no effort to make ye Chenyu unhappy when he has the opportunity. With a look in his eyes last night, Mo Shaochen knew what Gu Beichen was thinking. Mo Shaochen thought of how ye Chenyu looked when he lost the last game last night "Shit!" Ye Chenyu immediately jumped, "Gu Beichen, you Yin me!" "Yes!" Gu Beichen nodded. "You are skilled. You can practice if you have nothing to do at home every day?" Ye Chenyu was very angry. "You deliberately lost the first one before. You also wanted to relax my vigilance when you won the second one hard, didn''t you?!" "No way..." Gu Beichen sighed. "You have to be considerate. I have a big child in my family... Well, I''m still a big child who is very persistent about games and computers!" And the big boy is J. Since playing games with Jian Mo in Mo palace, J has been playing fighting except for Longteng online game. Later, Jian Mo was no longer his opponent, and j began to dislike Jian Mo all the time. In addition, she was pregnant and couldn''t play all the time. Gu Beichen naturally loved Wu and Wu and played with J. Two people with high IQ can imagine how familiar they are with the control of the game under constant training When ye Chenyu knew the truth, he almost didn''t cry. Especially when seeing Gu Beichen bring the fengguanxiayu prepared in advance to him, he had to admire that President Gu wanted to dig a hole and jump for people. This move was not simple at all. Not to mention the clothes, the crown on the head is made of fine gold. Finally, ye Chenyu found himself a step "For such a valuable face, my husband can bend and stretch!" Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes and smiled. His eyes crossed Chen Yu Where is Chenyu because of the fine golden phoenix crown? He just wants to give Chen a special memory and a disguised reassurance pill to Chen''s father What he can do for Chen, he can do without any bottom line! "Lao Chen, your daughter married a son-in-law. Don''t you worry now?" Chen Feng rubbed in front of Chen Qishan and asked with a grin. Chen Qishan glared at him, but his eyes were obviously relieved. How much can ye Chenyu do for Xiaoyu? What else does he have to worry about? Give him his daughter''s hand?! People are happy to watch the two new couples step on the red carpet Music is not "Wedding March", but wedding music full of Ancient Rhymes. The maple leaves are full of sunshine in front of the two pairs of maple leaves One worship heaven and earth, two worship the high hall, the husband and wife worship each other, and completed the best turning point of life. Mother Ye drank tea from two couples and gave them red envelopes with red eyes Mo Huai, elder sister, have you all seen it? Shaochen and Chenyu are married "Uncle Ye, you are so beautiful today..." Chen Shu whispered to Ye Chenyu at the moment of ceremony. "For your sake, I will love you well in the future!" Last night, when Jane Mo called her to say that she was cheating, she agreed without thinking Imagine her Uncle Ye wearing a phoenix crown, but she was so excited that she didn''t sleep all night! "..." Ye Chenyu twitched at the corners of his mouth. "Little girl, I think you''re itchy and you don''t clean up your bed... It seems that I have to serve the ''uncle'' well on the wedding night tonight!" "..." now, Chen Yu''s mouth twitched. Chapter 1195 Congratulations, blessings Filled with air, as if to burst happiness, so that everyone can feel it. Mother Ye happily greets everyone. After all, she is the "only" family in the man''s family today. And since knowing Gu Beichen''s Cen Lanxi in the past in the Mo palace, and looking forward to the birth of the child in Jian Mo''s belly, there is no previous hegemony. On such an occasion today, we should seriously count that Mo Shaochen has a closer relationship with her. But she took the initiative to withdraw to the seat of relatives and handed over the home court to mother Ye. Such recognition not only moved mother ye, but even thanked her. After completing the flower boy task, Jian Jie looked for Jian Mo, "Mommy, are you and your baby hungry? Do you want to eat?" "Not hungry yet..." Jian Mo''s fingers flew around on the mobile phone, and his eyes just looked at Jian Jie. "Milk bag, go eat it yourself first." "Mommy, can pregnant women stop playing with mobile phones?" Jian Jie, who has been handsome for a few minutes, has a dissatisfied face and even a trace of disgust. "Also, I''m so old, can you stop calling me ''milk bag''!" "Wait a minute, just a minute..." Jian Mo looked up and looked at the angry replica of Xiao Gu Beichen. After a few seconds, he smiled and said, "besides, I''ve been calling for so many years and I can''t change it for a while. I''ll try my best!" "..." Jian Jie frowned and asked, "what are you doing?" "When your mommy plans to paint the design, he will make complaints about it." Gu Beichen took the water and was so indifferent. He completely forgot that he had an assisting voice. "Well, there are plenty of resources around him, so it''s the headlines that I''ll just break the news!" Yes! Jane Mo is tweeting now Meager content is the front photo of the new couple that the external media want to take, but can''t take! Chinese wedding, ye Chenyu and Chen Yu also played a counter role Jane Mo can guarantee that her microblog will be hot search! As Jane Mo wishes, her microblog is really hot search The media reprinted her photos. For a time, the wedding of Mo Shaochen and ye Chenyu became a hot topic in Los Angeles. What''s more, for a long time, young people like anti serial weddings. Girls take men''s face and identity to test whether they love themselves. Of course, everything has advantages and disadvantages. Some had a good time, and naturally some parted ways because they thought the woman was mischievous The night comes under the red color The red double happiness is full of the smell of newlyweds. Chen Zhe is looking through the comments under Jian MOFA''s microblog with her mobile phone. After looking through it for a while, she enlarges the photos captured by Jian MOFA, with a happy smile on her whole face. Ye Chenyu is very evil and masculine, especially masculine. Therefore, after putting on the Phoenix crown and sunset, it looks very funny. But because of this, it is more memorable and memorable "Come on, sir... I''ll wait on you!" When ye Chenyu came out of the bathroom and looked up at Chen Yu, Chen Chen has to say that ye Chenyu''s physical strength is really not bragging. Unfortunately, Uncle Ye is setting the "family law". At such a time, as a evil ruffian and black belly, ye Chenyu naturally "turns a blind eye" to Chen Yu''s begging for mercy. In the end, Chen Yu lost his voice this night! Ask why? Begging for mercy talks too much, plus the burning fire Unlike the big wedding night here, it is obvious that Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue will be much sweeter. But the atmosphere of the wedding night is so beautiful. If we don''t get something that can make each other remember deeply, we are sorry for the serious Mo Shaochen. In his heart, there is a "devil" who is related to Ye Chenyu. After a pause, Jane Mo didn''t continue. Along the way, Zixiao became a nephew from her first love. Now looking back at the past is like a dream. Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Jun''s face was a little gloomy. Feeling the breath emanating from Gu Beichen, Jane Mo tilted her head slightly, "do you mind?!" "Do you think I mind?" Gu Beichen Leng hum. Jane smiled and nodded. "..." Gu Beichen was dissatisfied. "You said you had to eat Shi Shaoqin''s vinegar and your nephew''s vinegar... President Gu, I don''t need to buy vinegar in the future." Gu Beichen snorted again and didn''t answer. "Alas..." Jane Mo restrained her smile. "Last time I heard you say, Zixiao has been old to heaven night recently?" "Yes." "Why?" "Zhang Nian is there to serve wine in the evening." "Then they..." "I don''t know!" Gu Beichen replied angrily. ¡°¡­¡­¡± "It''s late. Go to bed." Gu Zong said, then let go of Jian Mo and took her hand. Jian Mo looked at Gu Zong''s awkward appearance, shrugged and decided not to ask. After all, the general manager of her family has been dissatisfied with the gossip and things she always cares about "others" and less about him. Chapter 1196 At night, it becomes more and more quiet as time goes by. Compared with the excitement of last night, mother Ye''s villa is quiet again tonight. Of course, today is so quiet, but full of happiness. However, it was also filled with a sense of loss when his son became a mother after he married his daughter-in-law Looking at the wedding words on the window, mother Ye looked at it and gently hooked a shallow smile at the corners of her mouth. That kind of smile, elegant, makes people feel soft and beautiful. After watching it for a long time, mother ye took back her sight and went to the kitchen to determine the ingredients to be used tomorrow. Yangwo and Yangye want to come back here tomorrow. The next day, the beautiful weather of the previous day continued. Early in the morning, the warm sun in late autumn ushered in a new day with its vitality. The two newly married couples arrived at Ye Mama''s villa one after another. Mother Ye probably made breakfast for four people Just "Xiaoyu, do you look like you haven''t slept well?" Mother Ye looked at Chen Yu''s dark circles and slightly twisted her eyebrows. Then she stared at Ye Chenyu. Her eyes were all blaming her son. It was estimated that she was out of control all night. This daughter-in-law is all her own. She doesn''t know how distressed she is, so she just thinks about herself. Ye Chenyu had a thick skin. He took a grape and threw it into his mouth. Then he looked at Chen Chen, who was already blushing. "If you get married, you have to make a family law... She was not satisfied with what I made last night, so we can only measure it all the time." "..." Chen Chen''s face became even redder. But ye''s mother stared at Ye Chenyu again. "You can bear it, so you married Xiao Yu. What family law do you make?" She came forward and took Chen Yu''s hand. "If this boy dares to bully you in the future, you must come back and tell mom, you know?!" "I see, mom!" Chen Yu blushed. At the thought of Ye Chenyu''s "family law" last night, she decided to be obedient and not let Ye Chenyu move out the "family law". That "family law", she doesn''t dare to do it again Unfortunately. Ye Chenyu became addicted to "family law" last night. In the next days, he almost made his evil ruffian temperament come out, and he always had to "family law" for Chen. This side just "taught" his son. Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue also arrived. Although Li Xiaoyue is not as tired as Chen, she looks obviously mentally ill Everyone took a tacit look and finally turned into pink bubbles in the air. ¡­¡­ "Wutong''s work is completed in a week." Ye Haoyang walked through the plane of the University of Los Angeles on the "one hand" bag. "Yesterday, yesterday, I attended a wedding, and my mobile phone was at someone else''s home." "I heard from your aunt Mu that you are not suitable for that girl?" On the phone, ye Wenxiu''s voice came. Ye Haoyang hung his eyes and smiled, "Dad, when did your news come from?" "Your mother listened to your aunt Mu before. I was just editing, and she didn''t say it. She mentioned it only yesterday..." "I went to that girl''s wedding yesterday!" Ye Haoyang looked ahead, "it''s a beautiful wedding. I''m a little sigh that I missed such a beautiful her." "I''m curious. What kind of child can you sigh like this?" Ye Haoyang smiled at the bottom of his eyes. "I took a picture, Dad. Do you want to see it?" "Well, it''s good to see. Next time, let your mother''s domestic friends look for you again..." Ye Wenxiu''s voice was filled with some teasing. "Well, I''ll send it to you!" Ye Haoyang put down his mobile phone and sent photos of the wedding scene of Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu. "Well, I''ll prepare for the big class first. When you look back, remember to ask my mother''s friends to look for me... Well, take a good look at the photos and don''t look back!" "Are you serious?" "Of course!" Ye Wenxiu was a little strange about his son''s "serious" attitude. "It seems that I really want to have a good look..." he paused, "you go first!" "Good!" Ye Haoyang answered and hung up. I saw a shallow smile overflow from the corner of his mouth. That smile showed his confidence. Ye Wenxiu sent the photo to the computer and planned to enlarge it to see what the girl looked like, so that the high spirited son could see it right in the eye The son is his own. He just asked him to take a good look at the photos, but he was very serious. Ye Wenxiu opened the photo and looked subconsciously at the "bride" At first glance, looking at the bride, ye Wenxiu was stunned and thought there was something wrong with his son''s eyes. But with another look, ye Wenxiu gradually frowned. He leaned closer to the computer screen. When he realized that the "bride" was a man and the "groom" was a woman, he just looked at the "groom" and kept staring at the "bride". A faint sense of familiarity filled his sight. Ye Wenxiu looked at Ye Chenyu and was uncontrollably excited in his sight. "This, this..." Ye Wenxiu''s lips trembled, and he didn''t even know what he wanted to say?! He quickly took his cell phone and dialed ye Haoyang. "Dad?" Ye Haoyang still Wutong Road, did not go to prepare what big lesson. He said that just to make his father think he was busy and didn''t have time for him to think slowly. "Who is that girl?" Ye Wenxiu spoke. "Huh?!" Ye Haoyang didn''t expect that ye Wenxiu''s first sentence was to ask Chen Yu. "No..." Ye Wenxiu realized his mistake. "Who''s the man dressed as the bride?" "Shouldn''t dad be interested in girls?" Ye Haoyang didn''t answer the question. Ye Wenxiu was too anxious, "ye Haoyang, you can answer whatever I ask you!" As a scholar family, the Ye family is very strict about tutoring. Although ye Haoyang finally studied psychology and some deviated from the track of the family, he still didn''t dare to joke too much in the face of his father''s anger. "His name is Ye Chenyu..." ye Haoyang said. Ye Wenxiu''s eyes turned red at once. He looked at Ye Chenyu''s face with Ye Yun''s ballad look between his eyebrows and eyes, and there was a flood of unspeakable emotions in the bottom of his eyes. Surname ye That is, she never married Mo Huai! What happened to her when she put herself down? I''m not taking my children with me Thinking of this, ye Wenxiu only felt heartache. His sister, who was as elegant as LAN, was pursued by many people in the school at that time But in the end "Dad?" Ye Haoyang shouted tentatively. Because there was no face-to-face, he couldn''t grasp his father''s mental state at the moment. He deliberately aroused his father''s curiosity in order to turn the original regret into a surprise. But now he couldn''t figure out what his father thought Because of what happened to my aunt in those years, the Ye family had no contact with Los Angeles as a whole, and they didn''t even pay attention to the news here. Mother also occasionally contacted her former classmates and friends, but she didn''t dare to inquire about her aunt. He did this today, only two results Or it''s a real surprise. Or he''s waiting to go back and get beaten Chapter 1197 Happy and sweet time always flies. In the twinkling of an eye, Los Angeles is already winter. Ye Haoyang went back after his project at Luoda. Finally, ye Wenxiu didn''t come to Los Angeles. But fortunately, he didn''t tell mother Ye about it from beginning to end. Sometimes, success is a surprise, but if there is an expectation, it turns out to be empty in the end, which is an unspeakable loss and sadness. As a psychologist, ye Haoyang would not do so. After winter, the temperature ushered in a cold current. The whole city of Los Angeles was gloomy. Most people searched down cotton padded clothes one after another and saw that a winter snow was coming Chen Chen''s marriage leave has long been taken, and ye Chenyu naturally wants to run his detective agency. After all, he is a man who wants to have a wife and mother. Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue''s law firm did not merge because of a wedding. The couple occasionally cooperate, both public and private. They all fight one called heart to heart. Chu ran occasionally joked with others in Yue''s law firm. Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue know each other so well that if one day they become opposites, who can win?! There are those who say Li Xiaoyue and Mo Shaochen I don''t know who will win. The jokers at the bottom have already "made trouble". Maybe this matter has been talked about too much. When it comes true unexpectedly, people can''t react at once. "What''s the situation with sister Yue?" Some people asked Chu ran and looked at Li Xiaoyue''s office. Chu ran zhe shook his head. "Anyway, the cold air inside is comparable to that outside..." Two people have just finished their wedding for more than a month. Who knows that they will "go to court"! "You won''t let me, will you?" Li Xiaoyue asked, lying on the table. Mo Shaochen lowered his eyes and smiled, "do you need me to let you?" "Ah..." Li Xiaoyue had a headache. "Why did you take this case?" "..." Mo Shaochen had a headache. The two people took the case at the same time. It can be said that the other party didn''t expect such a coincidence. The most important thing is that he just saw the case this time. It''s hard to judge who is right and who is wrong between the two sides. In the end, the two people rely entirely on technology. Although Li Xiaoyue has strong ability now, I have to admit that there is still a certain distance to surpass Mo Shaochen. The most important thing is that women are emotional. Li Xiaoyue will be a little weaker in the face of Mo Shaochen''s own psychology "I''ll push!" Mo Shaochen said after pondering. "No!" Li Xiaoyue immediately bounced and sat up. "You took it all. If you pushed it off, what would you say outside?" She lowered her eyes. "I don''t want you to be criticized. Besides, it seems that I will lose to you." "Fight?" Mo Shaochen is light. "Fight!" Li Xiaoyue drooped his shoulders. Mo Shaochen was silent, "Xiao Yue, do you understand the problems we will face next if we are opposite?" "Know..." Li Xiaoyue replied angrily. They are husband and wife. Under the sensitive status, they are in the same case. In order not to disclose information to each other, they will be separated during this period! Less than two months after marriage, they separated Li Xiaoyue felt that her mood was really as chilly as the cold wind outside. The couple, both famous lawyers in the criminal and defense circles, turned a case from the previous cooperation into the opposite. Suddenly, there was a big storm in the legal and political circles in Los Angeles. Industry insiders have begun to analyze the pros and cons of the two people. Even, some people are betting privately on who will win in the end. Ye Chenyu ate the meal brought by Mo Shaochen and looked at Mo Shaochen who came to his detective agency to find information. "The information you want is 1000 yuan. I''ll find it for you!" Mo Shaochen glanced at Ye Chenyu. "You want a thousand yuan, too. Are you crazy?" "If you bring a lawsuit against the rich, hundreds of thousands or millions of yuan will be recorded in the account. I''ll pay up to tens of thousands of yuan for cheating..." Ye Chenyu''s mouth is stuffed with food. "Brother, you should also calculate the account clearly." Mo Shaochen took his mobile phone and directly transferred the account to Mo Shaochen''s wechat... 5000 yuan! "Go!" Ye Chenyu felt at ease. "I know I have better goods here." "If the information of 5000 is not of that value, I will ask for a refund." "The information I have here is only value for money." Ye Chenyu picked his eyebrows, put down his lunch box and went to find the information. He handed it to Mo Shaochen and leaned on the shelf with his arms around his chest. "Are you going to block Xiao Yue to death?" Mo Shaochen looked through the information, "I respect her!" "Shaochen..." "Huh?" "Have you ever thought about turning around?" Mo Shaochen flipped his hand and paused. He looked up at Ye Chenyu. "Brother, I think you are really a smart man... You can jump out of the circle and see the facts at any time." "That is, how else do you do your brother?" Mo Shaochen closed the information and went to make a cup of instant coffee by himself. In fact, he refused, but ye Chenyu has only this here According to Ye Chenyu''s words, he doesn''t have so much spare time to pretend to force, grind coffee beans and cook them slowly. Instant is so convenient! "After this case, I want to go to business. At the same time, Beichen also wants me to go there..." Mo Shaochen took a sip and wrung his eyebrows. "It''s hard to drink!" Ye Chenyu took a coffee pot from the drawer. "Five hundred, can I drink it?" "..." Mo Shaochen twitched at the corners of his mouth. "I ground it for my wife. It''s cheap for you!" Mo Shaochen put down the instant coffee and took the coffee pot in Ye Chenyu''s hand. "I''m not your brother? I haven''t taken care of me for so many years. It''s nice to collect money from me for grinding coffee powder..." Ye Chenyu smiled and naturally would not really collect money with Mo Shaochen. "I''m afraid Xiao Yue is under pressure when you turn..." Ye Chenyu broke Mo Shaochen''s worry. Mo Shaochen heaved a sigh, "say it again!" Ye Chenyu didn''t talk about this topic again. Mo Shaochen drank a cup of coffee powder specially ground by Ye Chenyu for his wife, chatted a few words and left There was only an hour''s gap before and after, and Li Xiaoyue also came to find information. Naturally, ye Chenyu is sorry for his wife for such a aboveboard reason as "raising a wife". He collected this information when he heard that two people had taken the same case, and then sold it to Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue for 10000 yuan immediately! "Daughter in law, am I smart?" Ye Chenyu said, and gave Chen a 5200 red envelope, "look, it''s good to follow me. There are red envelopes all day..." Chen Yu is used to his Uncle Ye''s "shameless" behavior. No way, although her Uncle Ye can always see the business opportunities as soon as possible, as soon as there is any gossip, he will prepare the information needed by the other party in advance. So many lawyers now like to go to Ye Chenyu to find information "Uncle Ye, what should I do... I like your scoundrel more and more!" "Isn''t it?" "Yes!" "Daughter in law, I''m usually the most scoundrel in bed..." "..." Chen Yu was speechless immediately. Chapter 1198 Chen Yu is at work and will never quarrel with Ye Chenyu. "At night, mom shouted to go back to dinner..." "Tut Tut, since Ms. ye had a daughter-in-law, she has looked for her daughter-in-law for everything, and her son doesn''t want it!" Ye Chenyu said sour. "No way, who makes you the lowest person in the food chain now?" Chen Yu raised his eyebrows. "Well, I won''t talk to you. I''ll have a case analysis meeting here later." "Well, ok..." Ye Chenyu answered, "I''ll pick you up after work." "OK! Uncle Ye bye..." Chen Ying answered and hung up the phone. At the right time, snowflakes began to float outside. It''s not too big. While washing dishes and preparing dishes for the evening, mother Ye listens to the CD-ROM, which contains the materials she received recently that need to be translated. "Ding Dong!" When the doorbell rang, mother Ye wiped her hands and looked at the visual doorbell. When she saw the person who rang the doorbell, she quickly opened the door and asked, "Haoyang, when did you come back?" After asking, she didn''t wait for ye Haoyang to speak, so she hurried to open the villa door. It''s cold outside today. However, when she opened the door and saw that ye Haoyang didn''t come in directly, but opened the back door, mother Ye frowned slightly. I saw someone get out of the car Mother ye can''t see each other clearly. Ye Wenxiu stood in place and looked at mother Ye under the porch. For a moment, it seemed as if there was an illusion that she couldn''t remember her menstruation at the age of years, and her eyes suddenly turned red. "Dad..." ye Haoyang shouted. Ye Wenxiu endured and forced the moist fundus of his eyes back. Mother Ye looked at the approaching person. At this moment, she completely forgot her reaction and couldn''t feel the cold wind. She just stared at Ye Wenxiu, and her nose began to be sour. Tears swirled in the eyes and fell hot on the frozen cheeks blown by the cold wind. The cold and hot feeling of contact suddenly soured my heart. "Aunt..." ye Haoyang shouted and looked at the two sisters and brothers who had not met for more than 30 years. At that moment, he felt indescribable and uncomfortable. "Ah Xiu..." mother Ye shouted and burst into uncontrollable tears. Ye Wenxiu''s hand was shaking. At this moment, he didn''t know what to say. He just came forward and hugged his mother. Two people over half a hundred years old are already excited and speechless. Only in this way can they really feel each other with the hug from their relatives. "Dad, aunt, go first and talk about it?" When ye Haoyang saw that his mother was wearing thin clothes, he reminded him. "Yes, it''s cold outside. Come in quickly..." mother Ye wiped her tears and let two people in. The wind outside is cold. But at this moment, the villa where mother Ye has lived for more than 30 years is warm. Such warmth has nothing to do with heating. But the warmth from the heart It turned out that after ye Haoyang showed Ye Chenyu''s wedding photo to Ye Wenxiu that time, ye Wenxiu had no "reaction". He just hung up and never called Ye Haoyang again. Ye Haoyang was not sure about ye Wenxiu''s idea. He thought that the project would end in a week. After that, he went home and sighed with his father about Los Angeles. Dad wants to come back, and he also wants his aunt. However, in a scholarly family like the Ye family, aunt''s behavior is a thorn in everyone''s heart To pull it out, he must let his father understand that even if his aunt didn''t marry Mo Huai in the end, Mo Huai''s son Mo Shaochen and Mo Huai''s wife''s sister all acknowledged the existence of his aunt. After a month''s hard work, dad couldn''t stand missing and agreed to come back with him One afternoon, both ye mother and ye Wenxiu had endless words. After all, after more than 30 years of missing, they have been half a hundred old people since their youth. The sound of the car engine came from outside. "Chenyu, they''re back..." mother ye said, trying to get up and open the door. "I''ll go!" Ye Haoyang said with a smile. The man had walked to the door. Ye Chenyu was just about to take the key to open the door when the door opened. Seeing ye Haoyang, his eyes narrowed slightly, but he was not surprised. "Ye Haoyang?" Chen Yu frowned, "didn''t you go back? When did you come?" "Just arrived in the afternoon..." ye Haoyang said, sideways and motioned everyone to come in. Ye Chenyu looked up at ye Haoyang, pushed Chen Yu down and motioned her to go first. Ye Haoyang saw through Ye Chenyu''s thoughts. When Chen went in, the man came out and closed the door, "what''s the matter?" "Done?" Ye Chenyu didn''t answer the question. "Huh?" Ye Haoyang didn''t understand what ye Chenyu meant. Ye Chenyu smoked a cigarette and lit it. "You go back and come back. If you don''t deal with your uncle, what are you doing back?" "..." ye Haoyang twitched at the corners of his mouth, "you know "Nonsense, if you want to soak my wife, can I not check your details?" Ye Chenyu said naturally. "..." ye Haoyang was speechless again. "You are too deep in the city, aren''t you tired?!" "No way, professional problems..." Ye Chenyu took a cigarette and spit out the smoke ring, "is someone here?" "What do you say?!" Ye Haoyang was a little discouraged. Ye Chenyu looked at his dissatisfied appearance and smiled. "You study psychology, not perspective..." he knew what ye Haoyang was thinking. "If my mind is casually seen by a person studying psychology, I don''t know how many times I have died in those years." When undercover, the most taboo is that you can''t hide yourself. And the most powerful thing is to know that the role you play is not yourself, but you can completely live as yourself. Ye Chenyu is obviously successful, so he has been undercover for so many years, and few of them can survive without being dyed black. "Dad came back, but grandpa didn''t..." ye Haoyang was a little discouraged. "Grandpa seemed to be resenting what happened to his aunt in those years." "It''s good for my uncle to come back. Nothing can be completely perfect." Ye Chenyu leaned against the wall and smoked again. Ye Haoyang glanced at Ye Chenyu. "What about you? What do you think?" Ye Chenyu smiled and said, "ask the truth?" "Yes!" "In my memory, because there is only one younger brother, Shaochen, I was perfect when I got his approval!" Ye Chenyu patted ye Haoyang on the shoulder, put out the cigarette butts, opened the door and entered the house. Ye Haoyang drooped his eyes and smiled at the corners of his mouth. He felt a little lost, but he was not sad. Ye Chenyu didn''t cheat him, so he was the best treatment for him ¡­¡­ The snow is getting heavier and heavier. By evening, the ground had been thinly paved. Zhang Nian rubbed his hands and covered his face when it was hot "Zhang Nian!" "In..." Zhang Nian shouted his name and hurried forward. "This is for three days." "OK, thank you!" Zhang Nian took the plastic encapsulated traditional Chinese medicine, signed it, and hurried to the ward. "Bang!" "Well..." Zhang Nian kept running with his head down. When he saw the figure, he couldn''t stop his feet and hit the one who couldn''t control his body. The traditional Chinese medicine bag in his hand fell to the ground. Zhang Nian couldn''t care that his head was knocked a little dizzy. He said "sorry" in his mouth. People squatted down to pick up the traditional Chinese medicine bag. A figure also paused and picked up the scattered traditional Chinese medicine and handed it to Zhang Nian "Thank you..." Zhang Nian said thanks. A word spilled over her lips. She subconsciously raised her eyes and looked at Chu Zixiao. Chapter 1199 "You, why are you here?" Zhang Nian lowered his eyes and his voice became a little dull. "Come and see a client." Chu Zixiao opened his mouth faintly, looked at the traditional Chinese medicine in Zhang Nian''s hand and frowned slightly, "are you uncomfortable?" Zhang Nian shook her head, packed up the bag and got up, "go and see the client. I''ll go first..." Without saying anything more, Zhang Nian hurried to the ward with traditional Chinese medicine in her arms. Chu Zixiao turned around and looked at Zhang Nian''s back and gradually deepened her sight. Tang Yu stopped the car and came over and looked at Zhang Nian''s back. "Zhang Nian?" Yes, but when he saw Chu Zixiao''s expression, he was sure. "Also strange poor......" Tang Yu said like this, paying attention to Chu Zixiao''s expression change, "I came to the hospital a few days ago and met her to get the boiled traditional Chinese medicine. It seems that her mother was hospitalized." Chu Zixiao frowned and looked at Tang Yu. "Didn''t I hear you talk about it?" Tang Yu patted Chu Zixiao on the shoulder, "ah Xiao, it''s not nice to say. You have contributed a lot to the situation of their family... What can I say?" A rhetorical question left Chu Zixiao speechless. They also went to the inpatient department together In a recent criminal case, the party was still lying in the hospital. "Xiao, what do you think?" Tang Yu suddenly asked, "I saved Zhang Nian a little last time. Later, I went to heaven and ordered her to serve wine at night. If I didn''t know the reason, I thought you wanted to chase her." Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but there was a difference in his heart. Tang Yu looked at Chu Zixiao, who was silent, and didn''t say Zhang Nian again. He just changed the topic and said, "by the way, how is the case of Mo Bian and Li Bian going?" "Didn''t ask..." Chu Zixiao said faintly, "in terms of technical scope, Shaochen must have won Li Xiaoyue." Paused, "a large range of data of the two people are taken from Chenyu. It''s hard to say who can win in the end." "I hope we don''t have a court that day. I really want to see their court..." Tang Yu grinned. "Husband and wife, plus two people with status in the criminal and defense circles, benefited a lot from watching it." Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but his eyes fell on the elevator entrance and the sign on each floor. The elevator arrived with a "Ding" sound. Chu Zixiao and Tang Yu enter the elevator At the moment when the elevator door was closed, Zhang Nian came out of the corridor with the doctor holding the traditional Chinese medicine bag "Mr. Qiao, has my mother''s case been transferred to you?" Qiao Jinnian nodded, took the stethoscope and said with a smile, "it''s in my hand, so I can help you take care of your aunt when you go to work." Zhang Nian pursed her mouth and took a deep breath. "I don''t know how to thank you..." "Zhang Nian," said Qiao Jinnian after pondering, "have you ever thought about going back to the hospital?" Zhang Nian silently pressed the elevator and didn''t speak. "It''s a pity that you didn''t come back to school that day when you met Professor Zhang Jinnian..." Nursing major, there are few people who can be as enthusiastic as Zhang Nian. Nowadays, most people choose nursing major, one is for employment, the other is to have a decent and good job and find someone. But it''s rare for a nurse like Zhang Nian to be born for nursing. When the elevator arrived, Zhang Nian walked in silently. Qiao Jinnian sighed and followed in. Qiao Jinnian was the doctor who followed the ambulance to Zhang Nian''s home. Later, he learned that Zhang Nian was from the same school as him. Only after he graduated, Zhang niancai entered the school. "Senior, my current situation does not allow..." Zhang Nian looked at the rising number of the elevator and spoke silently. Qiao Jinnian felt distressed at the bottom of his eyes. He looked at this girl who was strong and once full of enthusiasm. Now he felt a little uncomfortable because his life was almost unbearable. Zhang Nian took a deep breath and looked at Qiao Jinnian with a smile. "Didn''t someone say that it''s because life has no fetters to pursue dreams unscrupulously?" She bit her lower lip, "but now, life has fetters, so dreams are just dreams!" Qiao Jinnian looked at Zhang Nian who just seemed very sad and helpless, but in an instant, he could face her strongly. His eyes turned slightly... He came forward and took her into his arms. Zhang Nian''s body stiffened. Holding the bag of traditional Chinese medicine between the two people, she could still feel the warmth under the cold. "Thank you, senior......" Zhang Nian''s nose is a little sour. People are like this. When no one comforts you, you can be strong. But once someone gives you a little warmth, your strength seems to be defeated and want to find more warmth. ''ding ''came, and the elevator door opened Qiao Jinnian slowly let go of Zhang Nian. They subconsciously looked at the number of floors and looked at the door. I saw Chu Zixiao standing there with his pocket in one hand, holding his mobile phone in his hand and talking But now his eyes fell on Qiao Jinnian and Zhang Nian. Just now they hugged and separated. He just saw from the crack of the open elevator door When Zhang Nian saw Chu Zixiao, his obvious expression also changed. Chu Zixiao stepped in and said to the person in the mobile phone, "I''ll come up to you to talk about his situation... OK, I''ll wait for you in your office." Chu Zixiao hung up. In the narrow lift car, because there is more Chu Zixiao, the atmosphere becomes a little treacherous. Chu Zixiao kept looking at Zhang Nian, who hung her eyes. Fortunately, there are two more floors. They will arrive soon. When the elevator door opened, Chu Zixiao still kept the posture of coming in, and even didn''t move his sight when looking at Zhang Nian. Qiao Jinnian frowned slightly and felt the treacherous atmosphere between Chu Zixiao and Zhang Nian. He didn''t say anything more, but said, "I''ll go to see my aunt with you..." "Oh, good!" Zhang Nian raised her eyes and answered. She glanced at Chu Zixiao. Without saying anything, she crossed him and Qiao Jinnian and left. Chu Zixiao turned and got out of the elevator. His eyes fell on the backs of Qiao Jinnian and Zhang Nian, and a strange emotion crossed his eyes. "Do you know him?" Qiao Jinnian looked back and Chu Zixiao asked. "I don''t know..." Zhang Nian answered without thinking. Xu answered too quickly, but he didn''t have any convincing power. Zhang Nian was embarrassed, stopped and said, "she is the last patient I took care of in my graduation internship..." "Oh!" Qiao Jinnian answered and did not continue to ask. He could see that Zhang Nian didn''t really want to talk about the man If you are just a patient, how can you say "no" in the first reaction?! Qiao Jinnian and Zhang Nian entered the ward together, but at the moment of entering, he was out of control and looked at Chu Zixiao who was still at the entrance of the elevato Chapter 1200 Chu Zixiao went to the doctor''s office on the other side after they entered the ward. Because of complications, the party concerned may have to be transferred to this department for treatment Chu Zixiao waited for a while, and the attending doctor came. "Chu''s argument means that the hospital has also given notice..." the attending doctor said, "people will turn up tomorrow morning at the latest." "Well," Chu Zixiao answered, "if the court session is held at the end of the month, there will be some trouble if the party is not present." The attending doctor answered, then picked up the phone and dialed a series of numbers. "Are you busy there? Come to my office." After the explanation, he hung up. After a while, there was a knock on the door "Come in." Qiao Jinnian pushed the door of the office and came in. "Director..." said hello, but his eyes fell on Chu Zixiao. "This is Dr. Qiao Jinnian," said the attending doctor. "This is lawyer Chu Zixiao Chu. A patient will be transferred to our department later, and you will be responsible for follow-up..." The attending doctor explained the matter and finally said, "if the patient has any situation, please contact lawyer Chu at any time." "Good!" Qiao Jinnian answered and looked at Chu Zixiao. The two people have eyes on each other, and there is no "first-time" friendship. It''s just an instant, electric light and flint between them. The attending doctor felt some fishy between the two and slightly frowned, "did you know each other before?" "I don''t know..." "No!" Two people eat at the same time. The attending doctor thought he thought he was thinking too much, so he didn''t say anything more. He just explained a few words and motioned Qiao Jinnian to be busy first. He and Chu Zixiao still have something to connect. ¡­¡­ Zhang Nian fed Yang Yi to finish her traditional Chinese medicine, went to the hospital canteen to eat with her, and then cleaned up and prepared to leave. "Mom, I''ll go first..." Zhang Nian said. "Today, the senior is on duty. If you''re really uncomfortable, you can tell the senior." "OK..." Yang Yi nodded and forced Zhang to read a reassuring smile. Zhang Nian chuckled, took the bag and left. She majored in nursing. It''s clear that her mother is suffering every day. But we only have each other. She can only pretend not to know, and her mother can only hold on to make her feel at ease. After Zhang Nian left the ward, he went to Qiao Jinnian''s office first. "Going to work?" Qiao Jinnian asked and handed the freshly made milk tea to Zhang Nian, "drink it." "This is..." "Homemade ginger milk tea." Qiao Jinnian smiled and said, "it''s snowing outside. Take precautions and don''t catch a cold." After all, you have to take good care of yourself in order to take good care of your aunt "Thank you, senior..." Zhang Nian took it with a smile and drank it, warm. "After work today, you go home and have a good sleep. Come back tomorrow morning..." Qiao Jinnian said, "I''m on duty tonight. Aunt, you don''t have to worry, huh?" "I didn''t transfer my mother to the senior students to relax myself." Zhang Nianzhe the corner of his mouth, "I just want to be convenient." "It''s all the same..." Qiao Jinnian''s smile is always gentle and warm, just like the heating in the room, which makes people very comfortable. Zhang Nian finished his drink quickly and looked at the time. He was not tangled about whether to come to the hospital or go home tonight. "I''ll go first, senior. Thank you!" Zhang Nian put down his glass and hurriedly turned and left. Qiao Jinnian looked down at the cup, chuckled, shook his head and took the cup to wash. The snow outside is getting heavier and a thick layer of snow has fallen on the ground. Zhang Nian put on his down jacket hat, put his hand in his pocket and walked out of the hospital "Didi!" The sound of a car whistle came, and Zhang Nian looked subconsciously The window was lowered. "I''ll take you there!" Unable to hear the voice of emotion, it showed the usual voice line of Chu Zixiao. "No, I''ll take the subway in front..." Zhang Nian refused and wanted to turn around and leave. Chu Zixiao frowned, loosened his seat belt and got out of the car. He didn''t say anything. He just grabbed Zhang Nian, opened the co pilot''s door and stuffed her in with her scream. Zhang Nian sat passively in the car, listening to the door slamming with anger, and his body trembled with fear. Chu Zixiao walked around the front of the car with a cold face, and glanced at Zhang Nian, "seat belt." "I can go there by myself..." Chu Zixiao didn''t speak any more. He just leaned over and pulled the safety belt to Zhang Nian. After tying it up, he tied it up and started the car again. Along the way, in addition to the faint sound from the air conditioner, the car overflowed with some terrible silence. Chu Zixiao kept a calm face, and Zhang Nian naturally had nothing to tell him. In this way, no one said a word from the hospital to heaven night. "Thank you!" Zhang Nian opened his mouth after the car stopped. With that, he wanted to get off. She simply didn''t say it all the time, but when she finally said this sentence, she didn''t know what nerve it stimulated Chu Zixiao. He grabbed Zhang Nian''s wrist and looked at her with unspeakable anger at the bottom of his eyes. Zhang Nian frowned and looked back at Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but just looked at Zhang Nian like this. "Although the time of taking the bus will be earlier, I still have to change my work clothes..." Zhang Nian calmly opened his mouth, and his eyes fell on Chu Zixiao, holding her hand. The meaning was very obvious. Unfortunately, Chu Zixiao didn''t let go. Zhang Nian sighed and raised his eyes, "Chu Zixiao, what do you want?" Yeah, what does he want?! Chu Zixiao suddenly asked himself Since he saved her, who was almost hit by a drunken locomotive driver, he has been like a madman for a while. As long as he has nothing to do, he will come to heaven to serve her at night. Why? He just couldn''t see her humble serving here. He ordered her and at least gave her a rest. He told himself that he felt guilty because he thought she was innocent. After all, she was also framed that night He knocked down Zhang Jia, and now she is in such a state. To put it bluntly, he made it all by himself. But this explanation, when he saw Qiao Jinnian holding her today, he knew that he could not convince himself. Seeing that Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, Zhang Nian pulled his wrist, but didn''t twitch. Not only that, Chu Zixiao imprisoned her hand, but tighter. Zhang Nian''s heart seemed to be blocked by something. She forbeared, but she didn''t, "Chu Zixiao, let go!" Chu Zixiao didn''t let go and didn''t speak. He just looked at the boredom on Zhang Nian''s face and gradually deepened his eyes. Zhang Nian saw that Chu Zixiao didn''t let go and began to twist his wrist, regardless of the pain. The more she was like this, Chu Zixiao held her tighter and tighter, as if she were on the bar. "You let go..." Zhang Nian shouted at Chu Zixiao, who couldn''t contain his anger. Suddenly Chu Zixiao pulled Zhang Nian''s wrist and pulled it to his side. While Zhang Nian stared, his other hand already held the back of her head and pressed it against himself and kissed it Chapter 1201 "Well..." Zhang Nian''s eyes widened in an instant. She wanted to avoid. However, Chu Zixiao imprisoned one hand and pressed his head. She could hardly use her strength. Chu Zixiao''s kiss was overbearing. He seemed to be stunned. He didn''t know what he wanted to do. He just felt Zhang Nian''s resistance. He couldn''t control his emotions and just wanted to absorb her taste. Zhang Nian''s empty hand pushed against Chu Zixiao''s chest, but it didn''t work at all. She can only be forced to bear the occupation from him. Gradually, she loses her strength and allows him to turn and entangle in her mouth Zhang Nian doesn''t resist. She silently bears what Chu Zixiao gives. However, the nose suddenly sour, tears'' Shua ''burst out, how uncontrollable. Chu Zixiao felt moist, and then there was a salty taste invading the taste buds at the corners of her mouth. He looked at Zhang Nian''s red eyes and suddenly calmed down. Slowly let go of Zhang Nian''s lips. Chu Zixiao looked at her like this and gradually twisted her eyebrows. Zhang Nian trembled at the corners of his mouth and sucked his nose. He hurried to one side of his face. His empty hands kept wiping his tears, but he couldn''t wipe them off, but more and more. Chu Zixiao closed his eyes and was annoyed at his behavior of just losing his calmness. "Zhang Nian..." Chu Zixiao shouted in a hoarse voice. He wanted to say something, but he didn''t know how to say it at the moment. How ridiculous? He is a lawyer and a famous defender. At this moment, he doesn''t know how to "defend" himself! "Can you let go?" Zhang Nian inhaled and looked at Chu Zixiao with red eyes. Chu Zixiao didn''t want to let go. He always felt that there would be any regret if he let go. However, looking at Zhang Nian''s forbearing eyes, he unconsciously released his hand. When the reaction came, Zhang Nian had opened the door and got out of the car Chu Zixiao also got off the bus. He watched Zhang Nian hurried into heaven night. At that moment, he couldn''t say what he was blocking. Leaning against the car, Chu Zixiao didn''t leave, but took out his cigarette and lit it. The snow is still falling. It''s very romantic under the neon lights. But Chu Zixiao can''t feel such romance at the moment, and even feels lonely. ¡­¡­ "Zhang Nian, you look in a bad mood today?" The foreman looked at Zhang Nian with red eyes. "Is it your mother''s side? If so, you can tell me that the time can be arranged. I''ll try to give you some time to take care of your mother." Zhang Nian pulled at the corners of his mouth and shook his head. "It''s all right. My mother''s condition is OK these days." "Well, that''s good..." the foreman nodded. "Thank you, foreman." The foreman smiled, didn''t say anything, just went on to be busy. The boss behind heaven night is the Dragon owl. The relationship between the Dragon owl and Gu Beichen is an iron brother Zhang Nian was specially taken care of by Gu Beichen. Naturally, she had to worry about it. But the little girl is also very diligent. She won''t do anything out of line or lazy just because she is taken care of. The foreman sighed and looked back at Zhang Nian, who was sorting the wine. People who come to work in such a noisy place either have some ideas or are short of money... No matter what the purpose is, money is a good thing. Zhang Nian pursed his lips while packing up the wine. When he was tight, Zhang Nian''s action gradually stagnated Chu Zixiao''s kiss was full of madness under possession. He lost his calmness like that, which made her a little afraid. She didn''t know what the kiss meant, but she couldn''t read it mechanically. "Niannian, I ordered two drinks in the VIP box. Will you come with me?" Asked sister Yun, who was also serving wine. Zhang Nian suddenly thought back, "OK!" If people are busy, they generally don''t have time to think about what they don''t have. The heavy snow outside didn''t affect people''s mood of indulging themselves. Heaven night is still drunk. Zhang Nian changed his clothes and looked at the tip he got today. It turned out that there were more than 3000. "Mom''s hospitalization fee is enough this month..." Zhang Nian happily packed the money, changed her shoes, said hello to sister Yun and wanted to leave. "Read..." "Sister Yun, anything else?" Zhang nianxu was very happy because he got a lot of tips tonight. He forgot what happened with Chu Zixiao before. Sister Yun came forward, took Zhang Nian''s hand and stuffed something into her hand. Zhang nianyi opened it. It''s money. "Sister Yun..." "As for me, I go to work at night and sleep during the day. I don''t have time to see my aunt. With this money, you can help me buy some fruit for your mother, huh?!" "Sister Yun, this can''t..." Zhang Nian said, and wanted to return the money to sister Yun. Sister Yun stopped, rolled her eyes and said, "what do you refuse? I''m not for you, it''s for my aunt..." she stared angrily and read, "OK, hurry back. It''s still snowing outside and it''s hard to hit the car." What else did Zhang Nian want to say, but sister Yun didn''t give her a chance. She directly called a companion who had just come in to change clothes and shouted to wait to go down to the barbecue stand for supper. Zhang Nian''s eyes were red. After silently saying "thank you, sister Yun", she put the money in her pocket. "Ah Yun, help people again?" The previous hostess said after Zhang Nian left, "you''ve been cheated several times. You''re not tired of it." Sister Yun took out her cigarette and lit it. "There''s always a real one, isn''t it? One or two thousand is not a big money for us. Even if they are cheated, they can''t get rich... But what if they can help one?" The hostess was noncommittal. Sister Yun smiled, "only when we are warm, the people around us will feel warm... If we are indifferent, how can we get warm?" "You have a lot of truth..." the hostess stared and changed her clothes. "However, I like that little girl Zhang Nian... I''ve been clean for so long, and I''m very responsible at any time." Sister Yun smiled. She just smoked and didn''t talk anymore. The snow outside has stopped, but a thick layer has fallen on the ground. Zhang Nian gathered his down jacket and waited for the car on the roadside. Xu waited for a long time because of the bad weather, and Zhang Nian didn''t wait for the bus Thinking about it, I was waiting while walking when a car stopped in front of me. The window came down, and Chu Zixiao''s voice came, "get in the car." Zhang Nian frowned and didn''t want to get on the bus. Chu Zixiao''s temples moved slightly, "at that time, I was too impulsive and not calm, so I couldn''t..." Zhang Nian''s mouth began to tremble. She didn''t want to get on the bus. At present, their identity and status are extremely embarrassing. She didn''t want to. "If you want me to go down and open the door for you, I don''t mind..." just as Zhang Nian wanted to turn around and leave, Chu Zixiao''s Yin measurement came from the car. Chapter 1202 Zhang Nian''s footsteps to lift stopped. She finally opened the back door and got into the car. "I''ll go to the hospital..." Zhang Nian said softly after getting on the bus. Chu Zixiao looked back on his side. After a touch of unclear complex emotion, he started the car and drove to the hospital At different times, Chu Zixiao drove back very slowly. I don''t know whether he did it on purpose or because there is thick snow on the ground, it''s not easy to drive fast. But no matter how slow it is, it will always reach its goal. "Thank you," Zhang Nian said quietly. "Well, I won''t bother you in the future." Zhang Nian''s words fell, and he leaned at the corners of his mouth to get off the bus. "Zhang Nian..." Chu Zixiao shouted. Zhang Nian''s hand to open the door paused, but he didn''t look back at Chu Zixiao. The atmosphere was silent for a time, and Zhang Nian didn''t understand why there seemed to be nothing else between him and Chu Zixiao. "If it''s all right, I''ll go first." Zhang Nian''s voice is always faint, maintaining a sense of alienation. "Can we talk about it?" Chu Zixiao spoke to the end. Zhang Nian made a self mockery at the bottom of his eyes and slowly turned his head to Chu Zixiao, "what''s there to talk about between us?" Her rhetorical question made Chu Zixiao silent. Zhang Nian took a deep breath and then slowly opened her mouth: "Chu Zixiao, no amount of feelings can be worth a fatal injury..." she smiled at the corner of her mouth, "I really loved you once, and some feelings came inexplicably. After all, at that time, you were a quiet sleeper." Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian quietly "But in order to wake you up, I slowly understand your past and your life. I think I have a very happy life every day." Zhang Nian laughed at himself, "at that time, I was really happy." She suddenly lost her voice, lowered her eyes, paused, and then continued: "love is a matter for two people. I like you, but I never wanted to force you." Zhang Nian raised her eyes and quietly looked at Chu Zixiao, "because I asked you to pretend to be my boyfriend, so my father did that. It''s really my father''s fault, so you''re angry and you retaliate. I''m willing to bear all that brought... But I''m willing to bear it, but I don''t represent that I can forgive." In Zhang Nian''s voice, there was not too much emotion, but only calm and straightforward "You keep hating me and I keep looking at you, which is the most correct way to open between us..." Zhang Nian finally said, without stopping, opened the door and got off, and hurried to the inpatient department. Chu Zixiao sat in the car and looked at Zhang Nian''s moving figure and leaned slowly against the seat "You keep hating me and I keep looking forward to you, which is the most correct way to open between us!" This sentence, like the voice echoing in the valley, kept repeating, and finally only in my mind, left the last shadow under the night light. After taking the mobile phone, Chu Zixiao searched for a circle of contacts, and finally some willful dialed Gu Beichen''s phone. Gu Beichen opened his eyes at the moment when the mobile phone vibrated. He took it first, pressed the call, looked at Jian Mo, who was still sleeping soundly, got up quietly and left the bedroom. "Huh?" Gu Beichen spoke. "Have a drink with me?" Chu Zixiao closed her eyes and her voice was a little decadent. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly deep, "come to me." "Good!" Chu Zixiao answered, hung up the phone, started the car and went to Changhuan garden. When Chu Zixiao arrived, Gu Beichen woke up and saw him come in. He poured him a cup, "have you had a showdown with Zhang Nian?" Yes, yes. Chu Zixiao frowned slightly and drank a mouthful of wine. He was obviously upset. Gu Beichen raised his glass, touched Chu Zixiao and went to the sofa. Chu Zixiao also took the wine cup and followed him. The whole person said, "Beichen, I don''t know what I want to do to her. I can''t see her like this, but..." "Want to hear my opinion?" Gu Beichen asked. Chu Zixiao looked at Gu Beichen with a slight embarrassment on her face. "Zhang Nian had a mind for you at the beginning, and mor''er and I saw it clearly, but you couldn''t let mor''er go..." Gu Beichen spoke faintly, and his voice was always calm. "Later, something happened in Zhangjia. You relied on me and didn''t calm down. You cleaned up the people on the rope. I didn''t say anything at the beginning." Chu Zixiao frowned. Gu Beichen glanced at him lightly, "in fact, you really didn''t like Zhang Nian at the beginning?" He said lightly, "if not, how can you accompany her to act in front of her parents?" If asked in reply, it was like pulling away a sharp blade in Chu Zixiao''s heart. Out of guard, he tore open the memory of the past. "It''s just that at that time, you were too persistent on Mo''er. You couldn''t see anything and see clearly." Gu Beichen took a sip of red wine, and the mellow fragrance in his mouth crossed the taste buds with a touch of sweetness. "Now you can''t see how much sympathy and thoughts she has. Zixiao, you actually know your own heart better than anyone else." Chu Zixiao began to be a little agitated. Gu Beichen analyzed him like this. He felt that he had no place to hide. But Beichen is such a person. He can see everyone around him indifferently, but you can''t notice it. "Originally, I thought I had more sympathy..." Chu Zixiao poured the wine into his mouth, swallowed it all, "but when I saw the doctor holding her today, I couldn''t control my mood." Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "often can''t see their own heart, love enemies are the best catalyst." Chu Zixiao sank his face and became more agitated at the thought of Zhang Nian''s words at that time. Seeing Chu Zixiao''s appearance, Gu Beichen knew that Zhang Nian probably refused directly. Zhang Nian likes the girl very much. He is self-improvement and won''t complain about others. Such a girl''s strong will be distressing, but with clear love and hate, such a girl''s heart is easy to open, but once closed, it is difficult to break through. Chu Zixiao didn''t speak any more, but after drinking with Gu Beichen for a while, he left. As soon as he left, Jane Mo came out of the room "Why are you awake?" Gu Beichen lovingly took Jian Mo and sat down on the sofa. "Tilt your legs, empty your legs, and wake up when you''re not there..." Jane Mo lay on Gu Beichen. "Then she couldn''t sleep, so she eavesdropped on your speech for a while." Gu Beichen smiled helplessly, "my family still needs eavesdropping." "Of course..." Jane Mo glanced and looked out, "ah Chen?" "Huh?" "Do you think," asked Jane Mo, looking back at Gu Beichen, "there will be a play between Zixiao and Zhang Nian at last?" Chapter 1203 Gu Beichen slightly tightened his arm around Jian Mo, and his voice spilled over his thin lips. "Zixiao''s feelings for Zhang Nian, whether it''s sympathy or really moving, it''s probably a long way to finally be with her... And it''s hard to say what the answer is at the end of the road." "Said is equal to didn''t say!" Jian Mo rolled her eyes discontentedly, "scheming all day." Despised by Jian Mo, Gu Beichen was unable to laugh or cry, "I can understand others'' feelings if I can''t understand my feelings before?" Since then, it has become the daily work of President Gu. Sure enough, as soon as he said this, Jane Mo smiled. In that way, her eyes were bent into crescent moon. Under the light and the maternal charm, the whole person looked particularly charming. Unfortunately, no matter how charming she is, Gu Beichen can''t do anything about her. "However, I still hope Zixiao can see his heart as soon as possible..." Jian Mo sighed lightly. "I''m too happy now. I can''t always see the unhappiness of the people around me." "Worry more..." Gu Beichen smiled, bent his face and kissed her lips. "It''s still early, go to bed!" With that, he got up, directly picked up Jane Mo and went back to the bedroom. Jane Mo''s due date is less than two months. Gu Beichen suddenly thinks that she has so many things to worry about all day. When she turns back to confinement, does he want to make more gossip to relieve her boredom? "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo nestled in Gu Beichen''s arms and shouted softly. "Yes!" Gu Beichen closed his eyes and answered. He held Jian Mo''s hand and put it on her swollen stomach. His voice was low and dumb in the night, "sleep!" Jane Mo also closed her eyes and gradually raised the corners of her mouth. Seeing that Jian Mo didn''t speak, Gu Beichen didn''t speak. He just held her and felt their coming baby After a while, Jane Mo''s voice came again, "ah Chen!" Gu Beichen sighed, "Hmm!" Jane Mo''s smile increased, "I love you..." Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes, and his thin lips naturally overflowed with a smile, "I love you, too, and children!" Jian Mo didn''t speak again this time, but his body rubbed against Gu Beichen again, and gradually entered his dream in his arms. If people are happy, they will hope that the people around them will be happy. Susan, Xiao Jing, Shen Chu Even Xiangwan has recently fallen in love with Lu Bai, the designer whom Jian Mo dug up from Luo Xiaojing. But when so many people are happy, Zixiao and Junli are not happy. ¡­¡­ For several days, the temperature in Los Angeles was extremely low. The snow on the road was cleaned up the next day under the busy work of snow shovels and sanitation workers. However, the snow accumulated in the tree ditch and on some trails, because of the low temperature and the absence of the sun, not only did they not melt, but they were trampled into thick snow and ice, which was extremely slippery. "Hissing..." Zhang Nian inhaled, and his painful eyebrows twisted together. Qiao Jinnian looked at her tight face and said in a reproachful voice, "you''re not a child. You know the road is slippery and you''re not careful when you walk in... You know it hurts now?" He said this, but the action of disinfecting Zhang Nian''s wound was much lighter. Zhang Nian looks at his poor arm and doesn''t want to complain. When she fell, the most she could do was hurt or bruised. Now it''s better to have such a big cut in your arm. "I don''t know who is so immoral. The wine bottle has to be broken and thrown to the ground..." Zhang Nian endured the pain. "Fortunately, it''s winter. If you wear thick clothes, you can''t directly pierce the bone." "You know it''s winter..." Qiao Jinnian glanced at Zhang Nian. "If it''s summer, can you slide? Can''t you see broken glass?!" "Hey, hey, too!" Zhang Nian, who was trained, could only grin for sympathy. "Senior, you go and be busy. I can do it myself... How can I say that I graduated from formal nursing." "Don''t move!" Qiao Jinnian saw that Zhang Nian wanted to deal with it by himself, and said in a deep voice, "your wound can''t heal in a few days. Now it''s winter, and the wound healing will be slow... You don''t want your aunt to worry about you, just be honest with me." Zhang Nian couldn''t move. Looking at Qiao Jinnian''s gentle and careful movements, he was a little shaken. People''s hearts are sometimes sensitive, especially for girls in terms of feelings. Xu has experienced emotional things. Although Zhang Nian doesn''t want to be amorous, she feels that Qiao Jinnian''s kindness to her is definitely not only sympathizing with her, but also from the concern of the senior students for the younger students. However, even if you know something, you have to pretend not to know it. It doesn''t matter if you guess wrong. You''re afraid that if you pierce that layer of window paper, you''ll be embarrassed sometimes. Zhang Nian''s thoughts drifted along with Qiao Jinnian''s actions. She didn''t come back until the knock came. "Come in!" Qiao Jinnian kept responding. When the door of the office was pushed open, Zhang Nian only thought it was a nurse or a patient''s family member, and didn''t care. "Senior, I can do the rest by myself... You''re busy first!" "Don''t move!" Qiao Jinnian''s voice is indisputable. The arm Zhang Nian just wanted to take back was stopped by Qiao Jinnian. He carefully treated the last bit of the wound and took gauze aside It was not until now that he had time to look up at the man who came in. "Lawyer Chu?" Zhang Nian''s body suddenly stiffened and was out of control. Qiao Jinnian looked at Zhang Nian and still grabbed her injured arm and wrist. He just shook it lightly, looked at Chu Zixiao and said, "I''ll treat her wound and go to see your client with you later." "Good!" Chu Zixiao answered, walked forward and sat down in a chair. His eyes fell on Zhang Nian''s injured arm. The wound that had just been treated looked a little seeping. Zhang Nian''s whole nerves are tense She never saw him again after that night. Whether it''s heaven night or the hospital, it''s strange. Obviously, his client is also on this floor, but she hasn''t seen him once, and he hasn''t gone to heaven night again. Seriously, Zhang Nian is relaxed these days. At the moment, seeing Chu Zixiao, especially letting him see that he was injured, Zhang Nian always had an unspeakable feeling. It seems that there is a sense of contradiction that I hope to be concerned, but I am afraid of being concerned. Qiao Jinnian pretended not to see the wandering breath between the two people, but gently bandaged Zhang Nian. I don''t know why. Qiao Jinnian moves very slowly. "Cry out when it hurts. I won''t laugh at you!" Teasing words are somewhat ambiguous. Zhang Nian looked at Qiao Jinnian, as if he felt that it was a little abrupt for him to say so at the moment. However, this words fell in Chu Zixiao''s ears, but it was not a taste. Chapter 1204 Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian''s eyes with an indescribable breath and a little anger. Zhang Nian pretended not to feel it, but after Qiao Jinnian wrapped himself up, he hurried to say, "senior, you''re busy, I''ll go to see my mother first..." "Well," Qiao Jinnian replied, "remember not to touch water, not to eat hair and spicy things. If it is not good for wound healing, it will also be infected." Zhang Nian pulled at the corners of his mouth, inexplicably embarrassed, "senior, I''m Xuehu..." In general, Zhang Nianzhe looked down at the corner of his mouth, but didn''t continue. He just subconsciously looked at Chu Zixiao, and then didn''t say anything. He turned and left Qiao Jinnian''s office. Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian''s back. The breath blocking his heart seemed to explode, but he could only endure This feeling made him uncomfortable. Yes, she was a nurse herself. If it weren''t for him, she would still be happy to do the work she likes. Chu Zixiao suddenly thought of the night when he had no intention to save her. Obviously, Zhang Nian was almost scared to death at that time, but in that case, she didn''t care about the bruises on her body, and immediately forgot her fear, so she hurried to take first aid measures for the child "Lawyer Chu, let''s go!" Qiao Jinnian washed his hands and saw Chu Zixiao staring at the door of the office in a daze, reminding him. Chu Zixiao regained consciousness, left the office with Qiao Jinnian and walked to the patient''s ward "Do lawyer Chu and Niannian know each other?" Qiao Jinnian glanced at Chu Zixiao. Read?! Chu Zixiao frowned slightly. He was obviously uncomfortable with Qiao Jinnian calling Zhang Nian a kind "Nian Nian Nian". "Yes." Chu Zixiao answered. "Does lawyer Chu like to read?" Qiao Jinnian asked with a smile as if chatting. Chu Zixiao looked at Qiao Jinnian. "It seems that I should ask Dr. Qiao... Does Dr. Qiao like her?" "Yes!" Qiao Jinnian didn''t shy away. He didn''t mind Chu Zixiao''s not answering questions at all. "I''m single again for such a good girl. I like it very normal." "Yes, it''s normal for you to like it." Chu Zixiao couldn''t hear any emotion in her voice, "just, she needs to like you!" In a word, Qiao Jinnian''s mouth was choking. Chu Zixiao kept walking and pushed the door into the ward. Qiao Jinnian unconsciously stopped and looked at the last shadow of Chu Zixiao entering the ward. He grinned secretly: a lawyer is a lawyer, and a word can hit the nail on the head. Qiao Jinnian raised his feet and entered the ward. In front of the patient, Qiao Jinnian has professional quality. Soon, he told Chu Zixiao about the current situation of the party and put forward suggestions. "If you can, I don''t recommend the patient to toss back and forth..." Qiao Jinnian looked at Chu Zixiao and said, "if you have to go to court, lawyer Chu can consider taking a doctor with you in case of need. After all, tit for tat in court, even normal people may be emotionally unstable, not to mention a patient." "I''ll think about it." After Chu Zixiao explained some things to the party, he left the single ward with Qiao Jinnian. Out of the ward, Chu Zixiao looked at the time and said, "it''s time for dinner. Let''s have dinner with Dr. Qiao?" "Is this meal personal or working?" Qiao Jinnian asked with a smile. "Everything is fine." Chu Zixiao''s voice was indifferent. Qiao Jinnian smiled again, "just eat in the canteen." "OK." Chu Zixiao answered. Yashu hospital is the top three hospitals in Los Angeles. The food in the hospital canteen is also exquisite and delicious. Chu Zixiao and Qiao Jinnian talked about the patient''s condition again, and then the natural topic turned to Zhang Nian. "What happened to her arm?" Chu Zixiao asked. "Fell and pressed on the broken glass." Qiao Jinnian didn''t hide Zhang Nian''s injury. "Seriously, men shouldn''t gossip, but I''m still curious. Lawyer Chu used to have a relationship with Nian Nian?" "If so, it will stop you from liking her?" Chu Zixiao still didn''t answer the question. Qiao Jinnian smiled, "no!" Paused, "don''t say it''s the past. Even now, if men and women are unmarried, I also have a chance." "Oh, Dr. Joe''s thinking is really avant-garde." Chu Zixiao deliberately accentuated the word "avant-garde" and made it clear that Qiao Jinnian likes to be a third party. Qiao Jinnian naturally heard Chu Zixiao''s hidden meaning, "avant-garde ideas have, but they have not been practiced... Fortunately, there is no need to practice reading here." This time, Chu Zixiao choked by Qiao Jinnian. Qiao Jinnian is very smart. He studies medicine. There are few stupid people. He saw that there was a "problem" between Zhang Nian and Chu Zixiao, but he also knew that their problem seemed to be unsolvable for a while. As long as he works hard, the problem between Zhang Nian and Chu Zixiao will always be a problem. ¡­¡­ The heating in the house is diffuse in the air. It''s warm, and people can always ignore the cold outside. But in such cold weather, all front-line combatants of the Los Angeles police system, except the special police team, are doing a cold shock training. "Report to the director, there are 23 unqualified..." Chen Zhen reported to Lu Bureau, "among them, 11 fought and 5 shot..." Lu Bureau listened carefully, and Chen Yu reported the results of the surprise training. Gradually, his eyebrows were a little deep. "If you don''t pass, practice until you pass." Lu Bureau said, "Chen Chen!" "Here!" "You have participated in special training abroad, and now you take the criminal police team yourself. These 23 people will be handed over to you." Lu Bureau issued an order, "I want to see their achievements in a week." "Yes!" Chen Chen responded. After Lu Bureau and other leaders left, Chen Chen went to get his mobile phone and sent a text message to Ye Chenyu: Uncle Ye, someone is unqualified and needs special training. There is only one week, so he has to work overtime from today. Ye Chenyu replied quickly: what about my special training? Chen Yu frowned: what''s your special training? When do you have special training? Ye Chenyu pulled a smile at the corners of his mouth: special training on posture at night! "..." Chen Yu was speechless and didn''t reply to Ye Chenyu. Uncle Ye of her family now takes hooligans as a daily routine, and the exit comes No, her Uncle Ye doesn''t just talk about it. Generally, he will definitely get it in practice. It is called: the combination of theory and practice can make progress faster. Time flies under special training. Winter nights also come very early Ye Chenyu was a policeman before all, and he is familiar with the place of this special training. He parked the car and chatted with the uncle at the door for a while. First, he knew him and second, he knew he was Chen Yu''s husband. Naturally, he wouldn''t stop him in. Ye Chenyu is carrying a heat preservation bucket in his hand. It is the soup that mother Ye cooked for her daughter-in-law in the afternoon. "Arm flat, three points and one line... Yes, so... Aim..." In front of him came Chen Yu''s capable voice. Ye Chenyu stopped slowly, and his sight fell on Chen Yu. Gradually, his eyes were filled with dangerous breath. In front of him, Chen Yu''s body was "close" to a male criminal policeman. While correcting his aiming posture, he said the key elements of shooting with patience. Just teach me how to shoot and stick it to my body?! Why didn''t he know that the police overlord was so patient?! Chapter 1205 Ye Chenyu stood and looked at Chen Yu with dangerous eyes. Chen Shuxu taught too hard and didn''t think that there would be people other than the police on the training ground, so he didn''t pay attention at all. With a bang, the bullet drew a light of fire under friction in the cold air, and then there was a small sound of shooting at the target. "Target!" Chen Yu''s voice was sharp. "The chest deviates by two centimeters!" Said the man who looked at the target. "Just said, it''s the center of the eyebrow!" Chen Yu said sharply to another shooter, "don''t say you deviate... What if the other person''s heart is not in the normal position, deviates from the dislocation, or is on the left? Just repeatedly stressed that if you are killed with one shot, you must hit the center of the eyebrow!" Chen Yu is not old, but both her official position and her professional ability make her momentum overwhelming. The trained policeman listened silently, but his face was obviously resistant and dissatisfied. Even, there is a trace of disbelief in the fundus of the eyes. Chen Yu sneered. Suddenly, her hand moved slightly, holding the hand of the criminal policeman who had been taught close to her before. Without aiming, she pulled the man''s hand and pressed the trigger "Bang!" ''poof!'' Shoot, the bullet goes into the humanoid target, in one go. "Hit the center of the eyebrow!" Shouted the target announcer ahead. The handsome action only relied on the memory of looking at the target when just teaching the police officer. Without any aiming, one shot went down and hit the middle of the eyebrow. The people who kept them grinned secretly and breathed a little hurriedly. We have heard a lot about Chen Yu''s deeds, but the people we really contact, that is, the people in the Eastern District, and the upper leaders. Few of these people are convinced. At this moment, one after another breathed and felt that Chen Chen''s legend of the police force was not due to high IQ or other reasons. Ye Chenyu always smiled at the corners of her mouth. Chen Yu''s action was very handsome, and her shock and awe power was also in place. Just Ye Chenyu''s eyes were full of dangerous light. For such a long time, did Chen forget that he was still "holding" a man?! The atmosphere was a little stiff. I don''t know who said "Hey, it seems that ye team over there?" After that, Chen Yu restrained his momentum and put down the Interpol''s hand. Ye Chenyu walked over, "didn''t you disturb your training?" As he said this, there was a vicious ruffian smile around his mouth, which eased the atmosphere. "I heard that ye Dui..." "Correct it!" Ye Chenyu stopped the man. "Now you can call me the husband of Chen Bureau or detective Ye. This ye team is not suitable." Ye Chenyu''s words were joked. There was still some stiff atmosphere, which was completely eased down. "Rest and eat first, and assemble in half an hour!" Chen Yu looked at the time and said. Everyone went to the training camp together. "Uncle Ye, why are you here?" Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu discontentedly. "If I don''t come, I can''t see that my daughter-in-law was so patient..." Ye Chenyu said in a sour voice, "Hey, why didn''t you be so patient when training me?" Chen Yu was confused by what ye Chenyu said. He was afraid of all kinds of hooligans who didn''t keep the door open, so he decided not to continue the topic. "Have you eaten yet?" Chen asked. "In order to eat with my daughter-in-law, I have to eat without eating!" Ye Chenyu said, kissing Chen Yu on his cold face while everyone was not paying attention. However, because the feeling of touch was too cold, ye Chenyu felt a little distressed. Chen Yu hurriedly looked around and found that everyone didn''t look back. He was secretly relieved and stared at Ye Chenyu, but his face was hot in an instant. Originally, her skin was cold, but now it was hot because of dryness. She suddenly felt a numb alternating feeling of cold and heat on her face. "I can''t go back later. It''s too cold. You go back first." Chen Yu said at dinner. Ye Chenyu smiled but said nothing. "Do you hear me?" Chen Yu frowned and looked up at Ye Chenyu, but found that his sight was looking somewhere. Ye Chenyu picked his chin. "Well, can''t you shoot?" Chen Yu looked back. "It''s very bad. I don''t know how to enter the western criminal police team through selection." Ye Chenyu took back his sight. "Not every criminal police team is a sharpshooter." "But fighting on the front line, inaccurate shooting, there will be a lot of problems." Chen Yu''s voice is a little dignified. "Daughter in law..." Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu with a wary face, "why?!" "I go back to sleep in the cold quilt alone. I can''t sleep." Ye Chenyu began to cheat. "I have a job, darling. I''ll go home after eating..." Chen narrowed his eyes and said with a smile. "Besides, there is heating at home, where is a cold quilt." Ye Chenyu twitched at the corner of his mouth, "can you have a little mood?" "..." Chen Ruo was silent, and a woman was make complaints about her own man. "Shouldn''t you say," said Ye Chenyu, sitting upright. "I''ll be full of energy with you. What else can you help me?" Chen Yu smiled, "Uncle Ye, you''re a little strange." "Where?" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. Chen Yu said "hey hey" twice, with an unfathomable look on his face, "I said how the soup mom brought today feels a little sour?! I didn''t pay attention just now, but now I think about it, I know what the problem is..." Ye Chenyu''s face is a little bad. Chen Yu turned back and shouted to the criminal police who had taught shooting before, "Xiao Gong, come here." Xiao Gong came over and sat down beside her under the sign of Chen. Ye Chenyu saw Xiao Gong sitting down directly next to Chen. There was a touch of awe in the bottom of his eyes, but it was only fleeting. "About the essentials of shooting..." Chen Yu said to Xiao Gong. He looked at Ye Chenyu, who had been silent, and was more sure that her Uncle Ye was jealous. Xiao Gong didn''t feel the dangerous smell from ye Chenyu. He just listened carefully to Chen Yu saying, "Chen Bureau, can you show us later?" Chen Yu thought for a moment and looked at Ye Chenyu, who was looking at her with a smile, but his vision was becoming more and more dangerous. He pretended not to find it and said, "there is a real myth of a police force shooting in front of you!" Xiao Gong looked at Ye Chenyu, and there was a faint light in his sight. "I know!" Xiao Gong''s voice showed a trace of complex emotion, but he said reluctantly, "my teacher of the police school once said when I graduated that he had brought the best in the teaching staff of the police school is Ye Chenyu." At that time, ye Chenyu had just been transferred back to the special police team from undercover. "I''ll give you a chance later..." Chen Yu held back his smile and looked at Xiao Gong and said, "however, worship is OK, but like is not OK!" "..." Ye Chenyu looked at Chen Chen''s eyes, and then looked at Xiao Gong, who was embarrassed, "are you a woman Chapter 1206 Seeing ye Chenyu''s surprised watch, Xiao Gong frowned slightly, "what''s the problem?" Ye Chenyu looked up and down at Xiao Gong again. From beginning to end, he really couldn''t see that she was a woman! "Xiao Gong is just very neutral..." Chen Xuan raised his eyebrows. Ye Chenyu didn''t find that Xiao Gong was a woman, but ate vinegar for a long time. The feeling of internal injury is really sour and cool. He is jealous. He has a problem with his IQ?! Xiao Gong looked at Ye Chenyu''s expression, his face was a little heavy, and his voice was filled with cold disapproval. "No one stipulates that girls can''t dress neutral, just like no one stipulates that men can''t wear skirts... Chen Ju, it seems that your husband has straight male cancer?!" "..." Ye Chenyu twitched at the corners of his mouth and said hurriedly, "I don''t feel anything wrong with your neutral dress, or have colored glasses." "Well, he thinks you''re a man. I stick to you too tightly. I''ve been jealous for a long time..." Chen Yu doesn''t give face at all. "Shit!" Ye Chenyu immediately stared at Chen Yu, "are you telling the truth by dismantling your husband''s platform like this?" Chen Chui chuckled with a slight complacency. Xiao Gong was originally angry, but she could see the interaction between Ye Chenyu and Chen Ju. She had an unspeakable emotion that blocked her heart. Night training continues As front-line combatants, they should not only adapt to all kinds of weather, but also fight at night. We should not only pay attention to the bad environment around us, but also overcome the influence of sight. "Uncle Ye..." "Yes." "Since you want to wait for me, why don''t you show them a hand?" Chen Yu said with little thought. Ye Chenyu glanced at her, "do you pay wages?" "Personal help..." Chen was dissatisfied. "I have to pay, too. I want a wife!" Ye Chenyu won''t give up. "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth. It is estimated that there is no one except her Uncle Ye. "OK!" Chen Chen gritted his teeth, "according to the rules of reemployment, five hundred tonight!" "No, I only accept private wages!" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. Chen Zhen really wanted to kick ye Chenyu, but finally gritted his teeth, took out his mobile phone and transferred 500 yuan to Ye Chenyu''s wechat. Ye Chenyu didn''t accept it. "I forgot to say, I only accept meat compensation!" "..." Chen Zhen couldn''t help but kick ye Chenyu. Of course, the result must not have been kicked. "Hooligans!" Chen Yu gnashed his teeth. Ye Chenyu''s evil ruffian smiled, winked with Chen Yu and said vaguely, "no, my wife is a hooligan. Doesn''t that mean I have a problem?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu looked up. She was really speechless and asked Heaven why she married such a serious girl to such an immoral man?! "Is it a deal?" Asked Ye Chenyu. Chen Chen gritted her teeth and nodded, because even if she didn''t nod, her Uncle Ye wouldn''t let her go in bed. However, when Chen Yu knew Uncle Ye''s evil taste, he almost burst into tears She really underestimated the obscenity of her Uncle Ye. She was really naive! Ye Chenyu''s personal friendship helped the training and immediately excited the people who left the special training for a while. In the middle of the meal, those who know ye Chenyu''s deeds and abilities have been publicized to the public free of charge. They are excited to hear that he wants to demonstrate the content of the special training first. Obstacle crossing, fixed target design, mobile target design After all the procedures, ye Chenyu did it like flowing clouds and flowing water, and even the action of drawing a gun and shooting was done at one go, which made people feel that it had been completed with only one flower in front of them. If Chen Chen''s shot at that time made everyone marvel, then ye Chenyu''s performance at the moment can only be described as "shock" to describe everyone''s mood at the moment. For a time, there was no sound, and everyone was stunned, as if they couldn''t respond to what had just happened. Even Chen Yu was suppressed. She knows Ye Chenyu is very powerful, and she also knows from Yang Jinyu and Qiao Rui that ye Chenyu draws his gun at an amazing speed. However, seriously, she saw it for the first time. That speed can''t be described by a word "fast" The heart suddenly ached, and Chen Yu''s nose was a little sour. Such a man was born for the police force, but because of her, he was willing to put down all the lead, just retreated behind her and silently supported her. Such a love, what qualifications does she have to say that she loves a lot? Compared with Ye Chenyu''s silent feelings for her, she is really glad that she did not shrink back in her feelings for ye Chenyu, but stayed with him. With him like this, her world is vast and boundless, allowing her to gallop wantonly... Just because she has the strongest backing. "God, brother Yu, you''re really awesome... After watching what you just did, I can''t wait to train myself like you immediately." "Yes, yes, I wish I had half the ability of brother Yu." "Brother Yu, teach me how to draw and shoot so smoothly and perfectly?" "Brother Yu..." Everyone has a strong desire to learn shooting because of what ye Chenyu just did. This is Chen Yu''s purpose. Naturally, ye Chenyu finished it for her beautifully. Only when a person has a strong desire for something, will he have a desire to get it. Ye Chenyu passed through the police officers who became his fans in an instant and looked at Chen Yu At that moment, everything was silent. * Mo palace. The first ray of sunshine in the morning is lazily scattered on the sea, showing the peace of winter, but there is not much smell of winter. Star rubbed his eyes with his little hand and opened them slowly. His eyes were as bright as black crystal stone, with a layer of bleary after night rendering. Shi Shaoqin walked over almost the first moment star woke up Recently, the time of star sleeping and waking up is very regular, which makes Shi Shaoqin follow his time and become a rule never seen in life. "I''m star''s stone..." Shi Shaoqin gently Dressed star and repeated the first sentence every time star woke up. He doesn''t feel sad, let alone tired every time he repeats. He just feels that it''s always good to be able to repeat. Star subconsciously likes to be close to stones. After listening to his introduction, he grinned That clever and sunny smile always softened Shi Shaoqin''s heart. "Qin Shao, we can arrange star injection later." Xi Cheng looked at the meal and said to star, who was a little naughty. Shi Shaoqin glanced at star. With a touch of worry on his beautiful face, he asked, "are you sure the medicine won''t cause side effects on star?" Chapter 1207 "Now the medicine is mainly to change the residual drug in star''s body without any side effects..." Xi Cheng said, looking at star who was stretching out his small arm and wanted to grab the spoon in the fresh shrimp porridge in front. Shi Shaoqin went to get the spoon, "do you want to eat?" Star''s eyes twinkled. He grinned at Shi Shaoqin and pushed his small bowl. "You have eaten two bowls..." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly. Star suddenly shriveled his mouth and said, "hungry!" Shi Shaoqin saw the twinkling light at the bottom of star''s eyes. He was not hungry, but liked eating shrimp very much. Especially after "amnesia", it seems that star shrimp can''t resist. No matter what he does, he likes So much so that today''s cooks will find ways to make all kinds of shrimp to meet star. Shi Shaoqin was wondering whether to let star continue to eat. He saw that star''s small face was completely flattering and said, "stone, half a bowl!" Xi Cheng said silently in his heart: OK, half a bowl! "OK, half a bowl..." Shi Shaoqin said. He already took star''s small bowl and filled him with half a bowl of fresh shrimp porridge. For Shi Shaoqin''s compromise and lack of integrity in the face of star, Xi Cheng feels that he should not be surprised But every time I see it, I can''t help but want to make complaints about it. Qin Shao, your cold bloodthirsty man has collapsed. Hello! "Is there any other problem with the injection?" Shi Shaoqin put the bowl in front of star. Seeing that he was satisfied and began to eat, he looked at Xi Cheng and asked. "It''s just that the injection will be a little..." Xi Cheng grinned secretly, "a little painful!" Shi Shaoqin''s handsome face was dignified in an instant, "a little?" "It hurts!" Xi Cheng said in silence, preparing Shi Shaoqin to get angry. Of course, he''s not stupid. When looking for star for dinner, he said this thing. He usually endured his temper in front of star by relying on Qin Shao. Sure enough, Shi Shaoqin was very angry, but he just sank his face. "There''s no other way?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice can freeze to death. Xi Cheng shook his head and said in distress, "Qin Shao, if I can alleviate star''s pain, how can I not find a way?" Shi Shaoqin was silent. "Star is not afraid of pain." Star suddenly glanced at Shi Shaoqin and fanned his eyes. In his black eyes, he could see to the end at a glance without any impurities. "I''ll have an injection later..." there was a trace of dignity in Shi Shaoqin''s voice. "There are stones, not afraid!" Star said a little proudly. In fact, star''s concept of injection is a little vague. There was no memory when I was a baby, and I had a fever recently But his memory will refresh every day. He has no impression of the past... It''s possible that he doesn''t know what the injection is, but he just thinks they''re afraid of his pain. Xi Cheng looked at star with a heavy heart. In addition to Shi Shaoqin, he was the most "day and night" with star when he was a child. He also pulled the child back from the God of death. Seeing that he is fearless because he has no "memory" at the moment, there is nothing but heartache. After star finished eating, Shi Shaoqin took him for a walk before going to the research and medical room specially set up for star. Children are naturally resistant to injections Star began to say that he was not afraid of injections, but when he saw the needle squeeze out the potion, his mouth shriveled. It was a butt shot. Shi Shaoqin held star and let him lie on his shoulder. Then he motioned Xi Cheng to start Pain is inevitable. Compared with the pain at the moment, Shi Shaoqin hopes star has his own childhood memory. The needle pierced star''s ass accurately and quickly. When entering, because Xi Cheng''s technique was very skilled, star didn''t feel any pain at all. But when the medicine was pushed, the feeling of muscle swelling and pain came, and the little guy immediately opened his mouth and was about to cry Shi Shaoqin felt the tightness of star''s body and the choking sound in his throat. However, waiting, he didn''t hear the cry. Star''s small mouth is badly deflated. He clearly wants to cry in pain, but at that time he said he was not afraid of pain, and the little guy just endured the pain. However, the tears fell down, but I couldn''t help it. Shi Shaoqin felt the wet on his shoulder and patted star on the back painfully. His long and narrow eyes looked at Xi Cheng and seemed to shoot him directly. Xi Cheng''s forehead has been sweating nervously, and his heart is complaining repeatedly. This injection will hurt. Star is nervous and tolerant at the moment. His muscles are stiff and the drug accumulation can''t be dispersed. It will be more painful! When star hurts, Qin Shao will be distressed, and his eyes will kill him... It''s a vicious circle. After one shot, Xi Cheng wiped the sweat on his head and looked at star. Star''s small mouth has been shriveled and can''t be shriveled any more. He looks at Shi Shaoqin with tearful eyes. His voice is soft and Nuo choked and still emphasizes, "star is not afraid of him... Not afraid..." Shi Shaoqin was distressed and relieved at the bottom of his eyes. He raised his hand and gently wiped star''s tears. In a soft voice, he said with a smile, "star is a little man. It''s really great!" "Hmm..." star answered in his nose, holding Shi Shaoqin and continuing to shed tears. Xi Cheng knows how much pain this injection will have. Star was crying in pain, but he didn''t make trouble or cry loudly... It''s not easy for a two-year-old child. I don''t know why, Xi Cheng has a feeling from this matter. What kind of patience will star have in the future?! ¡­¡­ Time passes day by day. After the last cooling, the weather in Los Angeles began to warm up, and the accumulated snow has been completely melted. "Aunt, I''ve recovered well these two days..." after Qiao Jinnian examined Yang Yi, he wrote the examination case and explained, "however, I can''t be careless. The weather outside is a little warmer recently. At noon, if you want to go out and breathe air, you can find me!" Yang Yi looked at Qiao Jinnian with a smile and had her own careful thoughts in the bottom of her eyes. She is from the past. Naturally, Qiao Jinnian is interested in her family''s Xiaonian. However, it was the same thing, and she didn''t poke it. After what happened to Chu Zixiao, why did Yang Yi dare to make his own opinion? She was afraid, afraid that for Xiaonian''s good, she hurt Xiaonian in the end. "That''s too much trouble, Dr. Joe..." "No trouble." Qiao Jinnian wrote the examination medical record and put it away. "Aunt, get well early, and you can relax your reading." The smile on Yang Yi''s face deepened. Qiao Jinnian is obviously much more positive these days. If Xiaonian can put Chu Zixiao down, should he be with him soon? Thinking like this, Yang Yi inevitably looked forward to it. "Doctor Qiao is so careful and gentle. I don''t know what girl will be lucky to marry you in the future..." Yang Yi asked deliberately. Qiao Jinnian laughed, casually but as if joking seriously: "a girl like Niannian!" At the right time, Zhang Nian opened the water and came back. He was about to enter the door of the sick room, which suddenly stopped! Chapter 1208 Zhang Nian stood at the door, listening to Qiao Jinnian''s half joking words with his mother inside, and gradually clenched his lips. Some things are lost, they are no longer complete. It''s not physical, but a defect in the heart Zhang Nian lowered her eyes, made a self mockery at the bottom of her eyes, then took a deep breath, pretended to hear nothing and entered the room "Mom, I''m going to get you Chinese medicine later. Do you have anything to eat today..." Zhang Nian put down the kettle. "I''ll go home and cook later." "Do I have my share in cooking?" Qiao Jinnian was still joking, "I just said to my aunt that you cook well!" Zhang Nian trembled in his heart. "I learned to do it when my mother was ill. The senior students must dislike it." "You''re not me. How do you know I''ll dislike you?" Qiao Jinnian asked with a smile. Zhang Nian was a little embarrassed. "If the senior wants to eat, I won''t refuse..." she restrained her mind and said with a smile, "the senior has helped me take care of my mother during this time. I haven''t had a chance to thank you." Qiao Jinnian felt a little lost. What Zhang Nian said was that he wanted to open a relationship with him? "Then I won''t be polite." Qiao Jinnian raised his eyebrows and ignored the hidden meaning of Zhang Nian. Zhang Nian smiled. After a few words with Yang Yi, he was ready to get the medicine first and then go home to cook. Qiao Jinnian and Zhang Nian came out of the ward together. "Although aunt''s physical condition is temporarily under control, you also know that if you want to recover, there is basically no hope..." "I understand." Zhang Nian has a heavy heart, but she has been a nurse in the end. If she can''t accept it, it doesn''t mean she can''t face it. Qiao Jinnian accompanied Zhang Nian to the elevator. "Nian Nian, you''d better be prepared in your heart. The later cost may be greater..." he paused and said in the end, "it''s too hard for you to be alone." Zhang Nian looked up at Qiao Jinnian and pursed the corners of his mouth. "Senior, some things should be borne and borne by me. I never wanted to escape. I don''t want to put myself in a cowardly place. In that case, I''m afraid I''ll lose my direction." Qiao Jinnian looked at the girl in front of her with burning eyes. She was so smart that she made people feel more distressed. When the elevator arrived at the right time, there was a ''ding''. The moment the elevator door opened, Qiao Jinnian sighed, "if you''re tired, remember me..." he said with a smile before Zhang Nian said anything. "I like to eat potatoes. Remember to add potatoes for lunch. Everything is OK!" Zhang Nian didn''t want to talk about such a heavy topic, "is it OK to have shredded sour and spicy potatoes?" "Whatever!" Qiao Jinnian answered with a smile and motioned Zhang Nian to enter the elevator. "I''m just going to the traditional Chinese medicine department. I''ll get the medicine for my aunt. You can get it slowly when you go home..." Until now, the two people saw Chu Zixiao who wanted to come out of the elevator. Zhang Nian hasn''t seen Chu Zixiao for more than ten days since it snowed that day. It is clear that Chu Zixiao''s client is on this floor, which is also the responsibility of Qiao Jinnian. However, Zhang Nian has never seen him. I don''t know whether it''s a coincidence or deliberately avoiding each other after that night. The three people are looking at each other in different moods at the moment. Finally, Chu Zixiao heard Qiao Jinnian''s words about eating potatoes, but in more than ten days, their relationship has been so close by leaps and bounds?! Zhang Nian felt nervous when she saw Chu Zixiao, but it was only a moment, so she covered up her emotions. Here, I''m afraid Qiao Jinnian is the most relaxed. Whether it was a coincidence or something, Chu Zixiao misunderstood that he wouldn''t feel like a villain In terms of emotion, only those who take the initiative will be rewarded. Those who hesitate will never get what they want. After seeing Chu Zixiao, Zhang Nian looked at Qiao Jinnian and said, "senior, you go and get the medicine, and then go home and cook." "Well, good." Qiao Jinnian didn''t refuse. In this case, there is nothing, but it is unusually ambiguous when it falls in Chu Zixiao''s ear. Zhang Nian got into the elevator and Chu Zixiao got out of the elevator. They passed by, as if they were familiar, but at this moment, they were full of strangeness. She said to him: you keep hating me and I keep looking at you, which is the most correct way to open between us At this moment, Chu Zixiao found that he couldn''t bear to come to her these days. How ridiculous it was to pass by at this moment. "Lawyer Chu?" Qiao Jinnian waited until the elevator door was closed. Seeing that Chu Zixiao had not moved, he shouted again. Chu Zixiao regained his mind and walked to the patient''s ward. "The court session will be held tomorrow. I applied with the hospital and asked Dr. Qiao to accompany me." "If the hospital arranges, I don''t care." Qiao Jinnian shrugged. "Trouble." Chu Zixiao said in a businesslike manner. Qiao Jinnian was also formulaic and polite. He accompanied Chu Zixiao to the client''s ward and said that he would go to court tomorrow. Chu Zixiao didn''t leave until he said what the patient needed to pay attention to. Sitting in the car, Chu Zixiao didn''t leave the hospital immediately. When he saw that Zhang Nian came back to the ward after delivering the medicine, he sounded the horn. Zhang Nian looked at the car and wanted to pretend he didn''t see it. Unfortunately, when she walked towards the door, Chu Zi''s roller coaster came and stopped in front of her. When the window was down, Chu Zixiao''s voice came, "get in the car and I''ll see you off." Calm voice, can not hear too much emotion. Zhang Nian wanted to refuse, but she felt that as long as she spoke, Chu Zixiao would still come down without saying a word and directly "throw" her into the car. After hesitating, Zhang Nian opened the rear door and got into the car. Chu Zixiao pulled his head and glanced back. He didn''t say anything about Zhang Nian sitting in the back seat. He just started the motor car and left the hospital. After Zhang Nian reported the address of the market near the rented apartment, he didn''t speak again. All the way silent, to the vegetable market, Chu Zixiao pulled over and stopped. "Thank you!" Zhang Nian said softly and went to open the door. "Do you mind rubbing a meal?" At the same time, "I can''t pick any dishes at the same time." "..." Zhang Nian took a puff from the corner of his mouth, "well, I don''t have time to eat at home." Meaning, please don''t bother me. Chu Zixiao didn''t understand, "you can also pack it for me. I''ll just eat on the bus..." he saw Zhang Nian still want to refuse, and some eagerly opened his mouth, "I''ll see another party later. I don''t want to find a place to eat." He said that. What else can Zhang Nian say?! The final result was that Zhang Nian bought two more vegetables, and then Chu Zixiao took her home to cook. The car stopped on the parking lane next to the building. Chu Zixiao got off the car and went to pick up vegetables. As soon as the door opened, Zhang Nian looked at Chu Zixiao mechanically. "I just got on the bus and forgot to tell you my home address. Chu Zixiao, how do you know my home? Or do you know it so accurately?" Chapter 1209 Chu Zixiao''s eyes flashed a dodgy light. Fortunately, Zhang Nian was still in the car and didn''t see it. Just listen to him calmly, "last time I saw your mother''s case in Dr. Joe''s office, it wrote your home address." Zhang Nian was silent, a little confused, but he didn''t ask much. Because this explanation is very reasonable. They went upstairs together and met an old lady who lived next door. "Xiao Nian, your boyfriend?" The old lady asked with a smile, "this young man is really handsome." Zhang Nian blushed and hurriedly explained, "grandma Wan, he..." "Thank you, grandma!" Chu Zixiao''s voice sounded in time, just interrupting Zhang Nian''s words. People are always naturally fond of beautiful things, especially women to men, regardless of age. Zhang Nian looked at granny Wan''s "good, good" expression of appreciation. He looked down at the corners of his mouth to explain. He felt that he wanted to cover it up. In the end, he just smiled awkwardly. "Grandma Wan, I went to cook first..." "OK, OK, go." Grandma Wan said hurriedly. Looking at the sound of Zhang Nian opening the door and entering the house, she sighed deeply, "what a good child. It''s not easy... Fortunately, a boyfriend can share a little now." In this way, originally she was only self-conscious, but she fell in Chu Zixiao''s ear. Chu Zixiao went to the kitchen with Zhang Nian and the dishes. Her sight fell on the sound of her thin figure, and the guilt in the bottom of her eyes became stronger and stronger. Zhang Jia is a big family in Yuncheng. Zhang Nian came to study and work in Los Angeles alone. Although she won''t spend money indiscriminately, she can live in a high-end small apartment she bought directly. After Zhang went bankrupt, Zhang Nian sold the apartment and came to the low rent house here In the kitchen, there was the sound of Zhang Nian cooking. Chu Zixiao stood in the living room that may not be as big as his bathroom. He looked around, and his heart was gradually suffocated. Because it was caused by himself, Chu Zixiao is standing here at the moment, and the complex emotion is invading his nerves. At first, Beichen asked him if he was too sharp. At that moment, he just wanted revenge, but he never seriously thought about it. Zhang Nian was also innocent. Mo Mo said that there is nothing wrong with liking someone Chu Zixiao fell into his own thoughts and couldn''t extricate himself for a long time. When there was a sound from the sliding door of the kitchen, he suddenly came back. Because Yang Yi can''t eat too greasy things now, and her current financial resources can''t support her to buy any big dishes to cook. Zhang Nian''s action is very fast. Hot and sour shredded potatoes, fish flavored eggplant, fried meat and scrambled eggs with tomatoes are all very delicious dishes. Zhang Nian found a sub packing box and packed one for Chu Zixiao. "Is a box of rice enough?" "Enough." Chu Zixiao quietly looked at Zhang Nian loading vegetables and rice there, and her eyes gradually became deep. Zhang Nian didn''t feel anything wrong with Chu Zixiao, but after he installed him, he began to find a heat preservation box to pack the food to be taken to the hospital. "This is yours..." Zhang Nian handed Chu Zixiao''s to him and went to put the insulation box into the insulation bag again. Chu Zixiao looked at his share and the three people over there, and his heart suddenly filled with sour breath. Go out, go downstairs Zhang Nian still didn''t notice the change in Chu Zixiao''s expression. "I''ll take you to the hospital..." "No, I''ll take the subway very quickly." Zhang Nian shook his head. "Eat quickly and don''t get cold. Don''t you have to see the party later? It''s a waste of time and trouble to come back and forth." Zhang Nian finished saying that he didn''t give Chu Zixiao a chance to speak, so he hurried to the door of the community Chu Zixiao took the lunch box and looked at Zhang Nian''s alienated figure. He felt more and more unhappy. Zhang Nian carried the heat preservation bag on his back and looked at the time. He could not help but speed up his pace. She was afraid that her mother was hungry because she had to cook a meal for four people today. Of course, the main thing is that Qiao Jinnian is going to have dinner together today. She is afraid of him waiting. Chu Zi''s roller coaster came over when Zhang Nian reached the door of the community, "get on the bus!" "..." Zhang Nian twitched at the corners of his mouth. Their current relationship has been very embarrassing. Can it only be like this every time?! Zhang Nian looked around and saw someone looking at him. He whispered and opened the door to get on the bus. This is a low rent house. Chu Zixiao''s car is too abrupt here. Zhang Nian was a little angry. He didn''t speak after getting on the bus. He looked at the passing street view outside the car Suddenly, her eyes were stung by a group of people. On the road, a group of people in nurse clothes were promoting health knowledge. Zhang Nian just looked at the angels in white, and his eyes gradually got wet At first, she studied nursing because she fell in love with that nurse''s uniform. She felt that in this world, there is no work clothes that are more beautiful and warmer than nurse clothes. But now Zhang Nianzhe the corners of his mouth and his nose is very sour. She quickly widened her eyes, and when tears seemed to be uncontrollable, she forced her back. Feeling the sadness in the car, Chu Zixiao looked in the rearview mirror and then fell on the right rearview mirror Inside, you can see angels in white from a distance. Chu Zixiao looked in the rearview mirror again and watched Zhang Nian secretly wipe away the overflow tears. The position of his heart seemed to be pricked by a needle at that moment. The pain made him forget to breathe. The car is parked in the parking space of the hospital. Zhang Nian has cleaned up his mood "Thank you!" Like Chu Zixiao''s "get on the bus", Zhang Nian finished and went to open the door. "Zhang Nian," Chu Zixiao didn''t look back, but looked back from the rearview mirror, "you..." "Bang!" Chu Zixiao''s words were interrupted by the sound of closing the door. Zhang Nian was afraid that her mind would leak. When Chu Zixiao called her, she didn''t dare to stop at all. She hurried off the bus and ran to the inpatient department Qiao Jinnian came out of the outpatient department of the main building of the hospital, still holding the drugs bought with his internal medical card, which are good for Yang Yi''s disease. When the talent goes out, he sees Zhang Nian in a hurry. He just wanted to shout, but he saw Chu Zi''s roller coaster. Qiao Jinnian frowned slightly, glanced at Zhang Nian''s back, and his eyes fell on the chuzi roller coaster again. At that time, Chu Zixiao asked the party only in a few words, and then left. Now it seems that it''s to send Nian back? Not only sent Niannian back, but even sent it back Qiao Jinnian thought and walked over. Open the door and get in the car. Chu Zixiao looked up at Qiao Jinnian and frowned slightly. "Lawyer Chu has been with Niannian at noon?" Qiao Jinnian questioned, turned his head and looked at Chu Zixiao. "Lawyer Chu, don''t you think that doing so will cause a great psychological burden?" Chapter 1210 Chu Zixiao looked at Qiao Jinnian coldly, and a touch of light sarcasm came into one side of his mouth. "What identity did doctor Qiao use to say this to me?" "It doesn''t matter who I am..." Qiao Jinnian said. "At noon today, I saw an earlier report. Then I waited for lunch. I didn''t have anything to do. I gossip deeply by the way." Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but his sight fell back in front "It turns out that Nianjia used to have such good conditions that he could pursue his dreams recklessly and would not disintegrate his dreams for the sake of the so-called ''life''." Qiao Jinnian''s words were a little cool. "All this is thanks to lawyer Chu." Don''t leave any room for sarcasm. Chu Zixiao''s hand was originally on the steering wheel. When Qiao Jinnian spoke, his hand gripped involuntarily and made a friction sound. "Niannian is now supported by strength. Why should lawyer Chu disturb her life after giving her so much harm?" Qiao Jinnian''s voice showed a trace of indifference. Zhang Nian''s father deserved it, so although Zhang Nian was sad, he couldn''t blame Chu Zixiao. At that time, one was the person she loved and the other was her father. The final result was that the person she loved personally sent her father to prison. Can Niannian still face Chu Zixiao? Even if more love, how to face it?! "Dr. Qiao," Chu Zixiao looked at Qiao Jinnian coldly, "between me and Zhang Nian, no matter what, it''s the two of us... Uncomfortable or sad, always... You''re outside the circle, aren''t you?" Lawyers have the most sensitive insight and observation. No matter how Qiao Jinnian and Zhang Nian behave, he knows very well that the biggest "intimacy" between Zhang Nian and him is the relationship between the elders and younger sisters of his classmates. If calculated in this way He''s just a different department, but he can also be regarded as Zhang Nian''s senior, can''t he?! A cold word made Qiao Jinnian secretly laugh at himself. Yes! In today''s situation, he really hasn''t come into Zhang Nian''s circle, but so what? He likes Zhang Nian and will not look down on her because of her family, nor will he bring her the pressure when facing Chu Zixiao. Life, even if not vigorous, can at least be calm, isn''t it? "And you?" Qiao Jinnian asked with a shallow smile in his mouth, "are you in the circle or outside the circle?" Paused, "lawyer Chu, I don''t know what you think of feelings, but one thing... I don''t know whether you agree or not." Without waiting for Chu Zixiao''s answer, he said: "people outside the circle have a simple purpose to enter the circle. Naturally, it will be easier. But if they are in the circle, they finally go out and want to come in again, it will not be easy..." After that, Qiao Jinnian didn''t say anything more and opened the door to get off. But when I got off the bus, I saw the lunch box on the workbench. "It''s not easy for lawyer Chu to pick up and drop off in order to have a meal to read." Qiao Jinnian finished and closed the door. However, at the last glance, he saw Chu Zixiao''s face, which had been covered with haze by his previous words, became more heavy. Chu Zixiao seemed to lie back on the seat Qiao Jinnian''s words made him suddenly weak. It was a feeling he had never had before. Whether it''s foam or Zhang Nian It was as if he had fallen into a strange circle. Whether it''s his reason or not, he was originally in the circle, but finally came out. Is it really hard to go in again? Chu Zixiao didn''t go and sat in the car all the time. After a long time, he slowly opened his eyes and his eyes fell on the lunch box. After reading it for a long time, he took out his mobile phone, edited a text message and sent it to Zhang Nian "I can''t recover anything from the past, and I can''t escape. But from now on, I think I can seriously face it with you... Zhang Nian, there''s no guilt or remorse, just want to start over." Zhang Nian looked at the content of the message and gradually lost his mind The nose began to be sour, and the eyes gradually became red because of sour, but for a moment, the water mist was already dense in the fundus of the eyes. However, such sour and astringent, and gradually turned into powerless helplessness. Zhang Nian leaned against the wall and held his hand. When the mobile phone screen automatically went dark, it slowly hung down It''s a feeling that the body is hollowed out in an instant. ¡­¡­ Jian Mo lay on the sofa, eating the fruit that Chu ran had just washed and sent in, looked at Li Xiaoyue who looked through the information and said, "if you lose to Shaochen, will you have a cold war with him?" "It doesn''t matter if I tell you, believe it or not?" Li Xiaoyue said without raising his head. "I don''t believe it." Jane Mo smiled, shook her head and bit the apple. "You''ve finished the court. It''s estimated that I''ll have a baby in a few days... Don''t be angry for too long. I''m afraid I can''t take care of comforting you." Li Xiaoyue looked up at the smiling Jane Mo and glanced discontentedly, "how do I feel? You don''t want to comfort me at all?" "Because you have Shaochen comfort, I''m just a spare tire." Jian Mo took another bite of the apple and then bolted, "besides, can you get angry? Every time you quarrel with Shaochen, your professional inertia moves the regulations... Which time did you win in the end? Haven''t you been coaxed by him?" "..." Li Xiaoyue thought he was really like this. I remember once, two people were angry at something at night She was not only angry at the first few articles of the law, but also reminded her not to correct them directly. At that time, her first reaction was that she didn''t think she was wrong, and then Shaochen said, "do you think I would be wrong about the rule?" She also began to question herself. Then she went to find out if she had moved it wrong Of course, the result was no, and by such a stir, she lost most of her anger. If she was coaxed by Shaochen, where would she continue to be angry? "Girl, I want to turn!" Li Xiaoyue said suddenly. "Huh?" Jane Mo didn''t understand. She looked at Li Xiaoyue with a puzzled face. Li Xiaoyue simply put down the case data, went to Jian Mo, sat down, took an orange and began to peel, "this lawsuit is over, I want to transfer to civil affairs." "Why?" Jane Mo sat up a little. "Aren''t you your favorite criminal?" She knew Xiao Yue''s dream very well. It was because of Shaochen that she decided to choose the law department. Naturally, she also firmly chose the criminal lawyer. "I don''t want such a thing to happen again..." Li Xiaoyue said quietly. "Although work and dream are very important, I prefer to be with him instead of the current situation." Jane Mo looked at Li Xiaoyue and didn''t speak. "Moreover, I am also very interested in civil affairs now..." Li Xiaoyue shrugged. "Tell the truth!" Jian Mo''s eyes became sharp and looked at Li Xiaoyue. Chapter 1211 There is no good secret between Li Xiaoyue and Jane. People are obsessed. From Xiao Yue''s ability to stand up again, we can see that she is not the one who quietly chose law and criminal defense for Shaochen, but she really likes to fight criminal lawsuits. Li Xiaoyue was somewhat frustrated in front of Jian mo. she paused with her orange peeling hand and said, "I don''t know why. I feel that after this lawsuit, Shaochen will turn to another..." "What do you mean?" Jane Mo asked, but she already knew that Shaochen might give up what she liked for her wife, just like Chenyu. "He was born to be a criminal defense, and turning to business or whatever is the regret of his life." Li Xiaoyue said quietly, "I''m different... I like criminal defense, but because of my experience, I''m also interested in civil affairs. Moreover, occasionally I can fight criminal with him, I''m not bad!" Jian Mo looked at Li Xiaoyue quietly. After watching for a while, she heard the sound of the apple being bitten. Jian Mo chewed and said, "will Shaochen agree?" Li Xiaoyue smiled, "girl, he can turn me around, and I can do the same for him!" Paused, "besides, having him around is already my biggest dream. People can''t be greedy. If they are greedy, they will only be unable to grasp the happiness in their hands." No one is born to pay for who. If the pay is not for each other, the feelings will be consumed quickly. This is a very shallow truth, but many people can''t do it. After so much experience, Li Xiaoyue can still be with Mo Shaochen. She feels that she has consumed all her luck and obtained the greatest happiness in her life. What can''t she give up the rest? Moreover, she is not necessarily criminal, but Shaochen should naturally stand in the position of criminal defense. "Just decide..." Jane Mo shrugged. "You always have your own opinion. I don''t think you''re on a whim." Then she smiled, "besides, a man, when he can''t make up his mind, just press down on the bed and lift it. Make sure that after his blood surges, he forgets to ''resist'' when his brain is congested, right?!" "..." Li Xiaoyue shook his head helplessly, "I can see that your general manager is handled by you every day." Jian mo ''ha ha'' smiled, "no, no, no, my boss can only see and can''t eat now, so he is very depressed every day." Li Xiaoyue was stunned at first, and then the two women laughed in the office ¡­¡­ The afternoon sunshine is particularly peaceful in winter. But this serenity does not belong to Zhang Nian. Qiao Jinnian had lunch with Zhang Nian and Yang Yi in the hospital garden. There was no wind. Although most of the plants around were dry, they had a different flavor. "I don''t know whether it''s my son or son-in-law. It''s so warm to eat with me." "Yes, there aren''t many filial boys now... Look at my son. He always says he''s busy. I''ll come and have a look in two or three days in the hospital." "Alas, it''s better to have a daughter. What''s the matter of raising children to prevent old age? All the money I earn in my life has been spent on buying a car and a house for my son. It''s not my daughter who finally comes to serve me!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Not far away, two geriatric patients chatted. Originally, I appreciated Zhang Nian and Qiao Jinnian. Later, they all became complaints about their children. Yang Yi looked at Zhang Nian, feeling guilty and happy. She had only one child, Zhang Nian. She didn''t want to have another child before, but later she didn''t have a good body, so she didn''t have another child. Now I want to have a daughter. It''s really more considerate than my son. Zhang Nian pretended not to hear the chat between the two old ladies. She didn''t want to be embarrassed with Qiao Jinnian. "Mom, I''ll wash the lunch box first." Zhang Nian said and began to clean up. Qiao Jinnian looked at Zhang Nian, and Yang Yi also looked at them. Their minds were the same. After Zhang Nian left with the lunch box to be washed, Qiao Jinnian took back his sight and pushed Yang Yi back to the ward. Yang Yi wanted to ask Zhang Nian if she still had any idea about Chu Zixiao or what she thought about Qiao Jinnian, but she forbeared and forbeared. Finally, she refrained from asking. The last time she was bitten by a snake, she was afraid of the well rope for ten years. After cleaning up, Zhang Nian plans to take a part-time job Since she quit the convenience store, she will go to paradise night at night. Basically, she will receive some flyers and breakfast milk during the day, and occasionally take out express. Although the income is not very high, it can at least subsidize the cost of living. "Mom, I went to work. Call me if you have something." With that, Zhang Nian carried his bag and left the ward. When the talent entered the elevator, Qiao Jinnian came out of the nurse station with an inspection report. He wanted to shout Zhang Nian, but the elevator door had been closed. Qiao Jinnian looked at the inspection report in his hand, thought about it, and chased Zhang Nian downstairs from the stairs. Taking the stairs is slower than the elevator. Qiao Jinnian chased out of the inpatient department and ran in the direction of the gate From a distance, I saw Chu Zixiao''s car was still in the parking space over there. Frown slightly. It''s more than an hour or two since lunch. Why is Chu Zixiao still there? Zhang Nian obviously didn''t think that Chu Zixiao was still there. At the thought of the text message he sent at noon, her heart was mixed. Zhang Nian didn''t go on, but Chu Zixiao saw her. He hardly thought about it, so he got out of the car But before he could speak, Qiao Jinnian shouted ''read''. Zhang Nian was afraid to face Chu Zixiao. Hearing Qiao Jinnian calling her, she turned around quickly. Her face was a little embarrassed because she was too anxious... It was too deliberate. Qiao Jinnian looked at Chu Zixiao, who was still holding the door when he got out of the car. He looked deep and converged to Zhang Nian. "Aunt, today''s inspection report came out. I knew you were worried, so I caught up with you." "How''s mom today?" Zhang Nian listened and asked eagerly. Qiao Jinnian said with a smile: "although the conditioning of traditional Chinese medicine is slower, the effect is good." Zhang Nian listened, and his hanging heart dropped a little. In the sun, because she was comfortable, the corners of her mouth gradually climbed into a smile, so brilliant and eye-catching. Not only did Qiao Jinnian look crazy, but Chu Zixiao, whose side face could be seen in the distance, gradually deepened her eyes. Qiao Jinnian glanced at Chu Zixiao and said, "read, I know something about Chu Zixiao and your family this noon." Zhang Nianzhe looked at Chu Zixiao at the corner of his mouth. At that time, the news was very big. If you want to know, you can know it by searching online. "Niannian, do you want to be with him?" Qiao Jinnian said seriously, "if you don''t want to, I can play a play with you and ask him not to appear like this, which will embarrass you." Chapter 1212 Zhang Nian frowned at Qiao Jinnian, "acting?!" Qiao Jinnian nodded, smiled and said jokingly, "of course, if you want to be serious, I won''t mind..." "..." Zhang Nian''s eyebrows tightened even more. "I''m kidding you. I''m kidding you." Qiao Jinnian felt a little lost, "but Chu Zixiao seems to have really caused your trouble... If you like him, I think this trouble is also a kind of memory in the future, but if you don''t want to be with him..." "Senior," Zhang Nian interrupted Qiao Jinnian, "I don''t want to act." At the beginning, it was because he played a play with Chu Zixiao, so it finally turned into today''s ending. She doesn''t want to act any more. No matter good life or bad life, only when she faces it calmly can she live up to time and steps, isn''t she?! "Thank you, senior." Zhang Nian emphasized the word "senior" and wanted to widen the distance, "I will solve the matter with him, but I won''t use this way." Qiao Jinnian felt Zhang Nian''s mind and felt more and more lost in his heart. But think about it, he still has time to grind into a lover with Zhang Nian slowly. Why rush for a moment and let her fear that he exists beside her because of resistance?! Qiao Jinnian nodded, "OK, then you go to work. I''ll go back to the ward." "Yes." Zhang Nian didn''t say much. Watching Qiao Jinnian turn around, she also turned around and walked to Chu Zixiao. When she came to the car, she thought and said nothing. She opened the rear door and got into the car. Chu Zixiao looked back at Qiao Jinnian, then took back his sight and got on the bus. "I''m going to Los Angeles square." Zhang Nian directly reported the address. "OK." Chu Zixiao answered and started the car to leave. Zhang Nian looked at the eye cart workbench. The lunch box originally placed on it was gone. She thought that Chu Zixiao had eaten it. There was still nothing to say all the way. Chu Zixiao occasionally looked back from the rearview mirror, and Zhang Nian''s line of sight was always outside the window. "Zhang Nian..." Chu Zixiao said while waiting for a red light at an intersection. "If you still want to be a nurse, time can''t be arranged." Zhang Nian looked back. "I know you have a good relationship with Li Shao, but I don''t want to be special." "Then are you willing to give up your favorite career?" Chu Zixiao is a little upset. Zhang Nian pulled down the corners of his mouth, a little astringent, but he didn''t answer. Her silence made Chu Zixiao unable to continue the topic. He also knew that this could not be decided in a moment and a half. After arriving at the place, Zhang niancai said, "Chu Zixiao, at night, if you have time, come to heaven night!" Chu Zixiao was delighted when she heard Zhang Nian''s invitation. He looked back and nodded hurriedly, "OK!" Zhang Nian pulled his mouth and got out of the car without saying anything. She''s going to hand out leaflets here this afternoon. There''s 50 yuan. If it''s fast, it only takes two hours. Time passed quickly. After carefully distributing the leaflets, Zhang Nian received a one-day salary, went to buy Yang Yi her favorite dessert, and then went back to the hospital. Busy, time always flies. Zhang Nian looked at the time. It was already eleven o''clock in the evening, but Chu Zixiao hadn''t come yet. "What are you thinking?" Sister Yun just finished serving wine in a box, handed the unopened wine to anti Taiwan and received a commission. "Nothing." Zhang Nian smiled and shook his head. "Wine VIP box, order leaflets and read..." When it was time, a call came from the sommelier''s studio. "Old rules," said Sister Yun, smiling at Zhang Nian after hearing the name of the wine, "Chu Shao hasn''t come for many days." Zhang Nian tugged at the corners of his mouth and answered with some embarrassment, "yes!" Sister Yun looked at the bartender and took the ordered wine to Zhang Nian. She smiled vaguely, "Nian Nian, is Chu Shao interested in you?" "No, it won''t..." Zhang Nian pulled the corners of his mouth. "He has such an identity. What woman hasn''t seen before. How can he come here to see me?" Sister Yun smiled, "don''t belittle yourself. You can''t tell if you like it!" Zhang Nian didn''t want to continue this topic. He said hello with the wine and hurried away from the wine service studio. Sister Yun looked at her hurried back, sighed secretly, went to one side and lit a cigarette When the smoke shrouded her dusty face, there was always a slight overflow of sadness. ¡­¡­ Zhang Nian opened the wine skillfully and poured the glass. "Something happened in the court tomorrow, so I''m late..." Chu Zixiao looked at her and explained. "Yes." Zhang Nian answered and looked at Chu Zixiao. "There will be a court tomorrow. Is there a problem drinking today?" "Nothing, drink less..." "Oh!" Zhang Nian answered, put the wine glass in front of and behind Chu Zixiao''s face, and sat down on one side. They were silent, and neither of them spoke first. Xu was so stiff that Chu Zixiao sighed, "did you read my text message?" "Yes." Chu Zixiao was a little nervous. "What about your decision?" Zhang Nian hesitated. Will Chu Zixiao''s trial affect him tomorrow? Because the party is also in charge of senior students, she also heard a little about his case... If she loses, one is unreasonable, and the other is that he is too poor. "Can you give me a present?" Zhang Nian asked. Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian with deep eyes and said without thinking, "OK!" "I heard something about your client by chance," Zhang Nian lowered her eyes and looked up at Chu Zixiao. "Will you win tomorrow?" "Is this the gift you want?" Chu Zixiao frowned. Zhang Nian nodded. "Although this time is very unfavorable to my client, I have more than 80% confidence that I can win." Chu Zixiao said, "although I don''t know why you want such a gift, you open your mouth. I will win it for you tomorrow." "Won''t you lie to me?" Chu Zixiao shook his head, "No." No matter how badly he handled his feelings, in court, Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao in Los Angeles are definitely the leading figures in the criminal and defense circles. Zhang Nian was relieved to hear him say so, but she still wondered whether to talk about it tomorrow. Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian''s tangled face and keenly felt something. He put down his glass, "I''ll go back and prepare for the court tomorrow..." With that, Chu Zixiao had got up and wanted to leave. He knew it was bad to escape like this, but unfortunately, he couldn''t hear the rejection. "Chu Zixiao..." Zhang Nian hurried up, "we can''t!" Chu Zixiao stopped and his eyes gradually deepened. Zhang Nian shook his hand. "I admit that I still like you, but I said that day that you and I can''t go on." She said, suddenly sad, "I don''t hate you, but I can''t do nothing, even if my father and mother don''t blame me, you know?" Chu Zixiao didn''t move, but the bottom of his eyes turned into thick sadness. "We can''t help each other. Now I just want to forget each other in the Jianghu..." Chapter 1213 Zhang Nian''s eyes turned red. The feeling of suffocation tore her heart. "There are too many things between us. Even if I still love so much, I can''t get close to you... Because I''m too tired." Zhang Nian looked at Chu Zixiao and slowly turned to face her. After a self mockery on the corner of his mouth, tears fell down. "Not every fairy tale has a happy ending, and not every love has a result." Zhang Nian sniffed strongly and smiled, even with tears. "Hasn''t someone investigated online that up to 95% of first love has no results? You and Jane Mo, you are to me..." When the words fell, Zhang Nian only felt heartache. Originally, she can face him become alienated and indifferent, but she can''t stop the heart that loves him. This relationship is finally coming to an end She thought that even if she was sad, she would become indifferent because of those bad things. But it turned out that she forgot the human heart. If it was filled with another person, it would be pulled out with blood Chu Zixiao''s face gradually cracked. He looked at Zhang Nian, came forward and gently raised his hand to wipe the tears on her face. "I don''t want such an outcome." Chu Zixiao''s voice was filled with a trace of sadness. "I couldn''t see clearly at the beginning, but I''m now... Zhang Nian, I don''t mind the hardships of this road, but I want a chance." Zhang Nian couldn''t help crying. She was choking with pain. "No!" Zhang Nian closed her eyes and squeezed out all the tears in her eyes. She kept shaking her head, even if her heart was suffocating. Chu Zixiao hugged Zhang Nian and wrapped his arms around her body, as if he wanted to rub her into his own body. "I will not apologize for what happened at the beginning. After all, I am angry and disgusted under such circumstances." Chu Zixiao''s eyes were scarlet, "but I ignored that you were also a victim. I didn''t take into account your feelings. Even, you suffered twice as much as me..." Chu Zixiao''s voice was filled with deep sadness and regret. If it wasn''t for the persistence of Mo Mo, if it wasn''t for the anger of that night, he and Zhang Nian might start slowly, and everything could be quiet. No matter what happens to Zhang Nian, there is no way to change it. Even, he can guess the answer, but he doesn''t want to face So he''s struggling. "At that time, I was also a victim. Now I don''t have a chance. How cruel is it to me?" Chu Zixiao asked sadly, "and how innocent are we?" Zhang Nian kept crying. In Chu Zixiao''s arms, her tears seemed to burst the dike and gushed out. Once, how much she hoped for this embrace. She imagined that if Chu Zixiao held her in her arms, she would be able to pass out happily Green love, all the girls'' dreams of love, she has done in Chu Zixiao. Because of these beautiful dreams, when she woke up, she found how vulnerable her strength was. "We''re all right, but time can''t fit..." Zhang Nian endured the impulse to hold Chu Zixiao. She knew that at this moment, she would only make herself and him more painful. "The time is wrong and can be corrected." Chu Zixiao gritted his teeth. "If you miss it, you can wait and look back... How can we know that it has always been wrong without trying hard?" Zhang Nian was sobbing. "There''s no way..." she suddenly pushed Chu Zixiao away. "Can you give me a father back? Can you make my mother no longer lie in the hospital bed all year round? No!" Zhang Nian roared, "Chu Zixiao, you''re not me, you don''t know how difficult I am in the middle... I even thought, if it wasn''t for my unreasonable request, if it wasn''t for my so-called dream, if it wasn''t for that play, would I be happier today?" She laughed at herself and said, "but how can there be a if? Everything happened, and we can''t change..." Zhang Nian wiped her tears. "Once, there were so many problems between Jian Mo and Gu Beichen, but they were in love, so they had to overcome them, and what about us? If not, how can we spend the thorns together?" "Now we can write our unforgettable words!" Chu Zixiao roared. Zhang Nian shook his head. "You don''t understand... Only when there are no impurities between us at the beginning, can we be unforgettable. There is a gap between us. How to depict each other''s bones and remember each other''s hearts?" A query made Chu Zixiao feel powerless. He understood everything Zhang Nian said. It was because he understood that he was more powerless. "Everyone is well..." Zhang Nian tried to smile, even if his nose is sore. "Maybe one day I can forget my thoughts about you, and you can also find a calm love that belongs to you... We bless each other and keep the memory today." Chu Zixiao''s eyes were red, and the corners of his mouth moved back and forth, trying to do something forcibly. But at this moment, he can''t move. Zhang Nian is so strong in front of him. He looks at her eyes, the tears in her eyes and the smile on her mouth. He can''t use anything to hurt the girl. Winter night wind, mixed with biting. All of a sudden, across the face, just like the tip of a small needle on the skin. But how can such pain compare with the pain in my heart at this moment? From the beginning of returning home, he made mistakes in dealing with Mo Mo''s feelings, and finally extended the mistakes to Zhang Nian. He is innocent, but Zhang Nian is more innocent than him. But now I understand that it''s too late Even if Zhang Nian is reluctant to be with him, she will be unhappy. She tortures herself every day because of her behavior of being ashamed of her parents. Is this what he can pay for love? Just like the original foam, can his love only bring harm? No He can also give way or pay silently, can''t he?! Not every relationship, all he can do is love without being sharp Time, little by little. The winter night is getting deeper and deeper, and the wind is getting more and more biting. Chu Zixiao leaned on the car and smoked one cigarette after another. By the time Zhang Nian got off work, a circle had fallen in front of his heel. Zhang Nian was in a mixed mood when she saw Chu Zixiao. She doesn''t know what to do to completely push Chu Zixiao away "You don''t have a burden," Chu Zixiao said gently when he saw Zhang Nian standing there. "Can I send you one last time in an embarrassing capacity?" Chapter 1214 Zhang Nian looked at Chu Zixiao quietly and finally nodded. This time, instead of sitting in the back seat, she sat in the co pilot. She is greedy. She can feel his breath at a close distance when she gets along with him at the last moment. There was still nothing to say all the way, but the driving speed of the car was a little slower than usual. Whether Chu Zixiao or Zhang Nian, it seems that they are cherishing this different farewell journey But no matter how far the road is, no matter how slow it is, there will always be the moment of arrival. The car stopped in the parking space, and the quiet overflow everywhere has the peace of winter night alone. "Thank you!" Zhang Nian''s dry mouth. Chu Zixiao glanced at Zhang Nian. Just as she turned to look at the door, he fished her over, and then... His lips fell on her lips. Zhang Nian didn''t resist, and Chu Zixiao didn''t go deep Their lips are close to each other, and their breathing is clear and audible. Zhang Nian closed his eyes, his nose was sour and his lips began to tremble. Chu Zixiao also closed his eyes. After a while, he slowly released Zhang Nian, opened his eyes, looked at her scarlet eyes, and gently opened his mouth: "all right!" Zhang Nian''s mouth moved back and forth. Without saying anything, he turned and opened the door to get off. All the actions are eager to escape. With the last kiss, all the heat dissipates in the cold wind "You cried and told me that the stories in fairy tales are deceptive..." A sad love song came from the midnight radio. Chu Zixiao leaned on the seat and slowly closed his eyes, letting the boundless darkness devour the pain at the bottom of his heart with the song. the second day. It''s sunny in Los Angeles. At noon, the sun is scorching and baking the withering of winter. "According to previous analysis, the winning rate of Chu Zixiao''s party in this criminal case is only more than 60%, even if he plays it..." "Chu Zixiao won this defense. People in the industry spoke highly of his technical sling this time..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± In the news, it was reported that Chu Zixiao had won the lawsuit again. Zhang Nian took the bill and looked at the news report on TV in the hall. She gradually lost her mind. The industry said that there was only 60% hope. Last night, he told her that 80% She said she wanted a gift just to win the lawsuit. The voice of a text message arriving from the mobile phone disturbed Zhang Nian''s thoughts. She took back her sight on the TV, took out her mobile phone and opened the text message: the gift you asked for, I hope I didn''t disappoint you. Zhang Nian gradually climbed into a smile at the corners of her mouth. She didn''t reply. She just installed her mobile phone and watched TV again Above, Chu Zixiao wrapped his figure in a well cut suit. As a lawyer, he is the most charming in Zhang Nian''s eyes. Everything is well, forget in the Jianghu In the future years and life, she didn''t know what it would be like, but she felt that such an ending between her and Chu Zixiao was the best for each other. ¡­¡­ Time passes day by day. Chu Zixiao won a beautiful lawsuit before, and then another duel between Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue. Topic characters and topic cases are destined to be stirred up in Los Angeles. "How''s it going?" Chen zhe carried the fruit cut by mother ye into the study and sat down in front of Li Xiaoyue. "Are you in a hurry to finish it?" "Yes!" Li Xiaoyue rubbed the center of her eyebrows, took Chen Yu''s banana with a small fork and bit, "you don''t know. I think the separation of husband and wife is too hard for me!" "I knew..." Chen Yu smiled. "You talk about you. You have no enthusiasm for work. Just thinking about your man, I have to criticize you on behalf of the people." Li Xiaoyue and Chen Yu looked at each other and immediately burst into laughter. "Xiaoyu, when are you and Chenyu going to have children?" Li Xiaoyue asked unintentionally. Chen Yu took a grape and threw it into his mouth, "go with fate..." Uncle Ye sings all night and wants children. She thinks she will soon become a bloated woman with a big belly. Chen Yu is a little upset. She is still young. In fact, she can be two years late. However, seeing the happy face of Jane Mo''s big belly, she wanted to be pregnant again Oh, it''s so tangled. "And you?" Chen asked. Li Xiaoyue has a touch of sadness at the bottom of his eyes, which can be covered up quickly, "also follow the fate." Chen Yu''s Suiyuan is just like that, but Li Xiaoyue''s Suiyuan really can only be Suiyuan. Xu is not very pregnant. When she sees other people''s children, Li Xiaoyue hopes more and more that luck can come The two women chatted casually. Chen Yu didn''t know about Li Xiaoyue. She didn''t think about the children. When he got home, Chen Yu talked about it with Ye Chenyu. "Xiao Yue is not very pregnant due to physical reasons." Ye Chenyu looked at his excited wife and sighed. Chen Yu immediately opened his mouth, "why didn''t you say it earlier? I talked with Xiao Yue about children for a long time." Ye Chenyu directly threw down Chen Yu. "It''s good to talk about it. If you don''t hold it in your heart, it''s an internal injury." "Oh, don''t... There... Hahaha, Uncle Ye, spare your life..." After many experiments by Ye Chenyu, he found the most sensitive place of Chen Yu. Chen Yu is always in a bad mood when he is speechless and choking. Uncle Ye has so many bad interests that she is exhausted by Uncle Ye every time except for special circumstances and overtime. "Uncle Ye..." "Yes!" "You work so hard every time," Chen said in a soft voice, "but I can''t see the signal in my stomach..." She said, suddenly worried, "I won''t and it''s not easy to get pregnant!" Ye Chenyu burned at the corner of Chen''s mouth, "silly girl, I don''t want you to get pregnant so early... Otherwise, our world is too short." "But aren''t you in a hurry to have children?" "That''s funny!" Chen Yu stared at Ye Chenyu, "but you don''t have any protective measures!" What''s the implication? How can you miss it so many times? "I have a safe period for you," said Ye Chenyu, without affecting his flirting with Chen. "I solved it outside when it''s not a safe period." Chen Yu thought carefully, as if it was true. However, she was tossed too hard by Ye Chenyu every time and didn''t care at all. The night is intoxicating. Before the lunar new year, the most concerned defense finally came under the changing stars. The duel between Li Xiaoyue and Mo Shaochen attracted the attention of many people in the political and legal circles. The whole court was full. "Girl, would you like to stay in the lounge?" Li Xiaoyue glanced at Jian Mo''s stomach, "I''m afraid you''ll have a baby as soon as you''re nervous!" Chapter 1215 Jane Mo''s due date is less than a week. Li Xiaoyue is really worried that Jane Mo will be more nervous than her in the battle between her and Mo Shaochen, and then "It''s all right," Jane Mo stroked her swollen stomach. "Ah Chen is there. There''s nothing to worry about." Li Xiaoyue rolled his eyes. "Girl, are you on the same channel with me?" Jane Mo grinned. "I know you''re afraid that the tense atmosphere in court will affect me. Don''t I consider it for you?" Li Xiaoyue frowned slightly and looked at Jian Mo puzzled. Jane Mo smiled more. "If the baby comes out in advance, even if you lose, it can be said that you won''t be so ashamed because of my interference, won''t you?" "..." Li Xiaoyue took a swipe at the corner of his mouth. "What you said is reasonable. I can''t refute it." "Right?!" Jian Mo winked at Li Xiaoyue, "as a sister, I''m actually fighting for your face." Li Xiaoyue stared at Jian Mo angrily and looked at the time. "In fact, I''m still a little nervous. It seems that there are many people in the industry today." "It''s all right. You just have to think about it. You''ll lose anyway. Just try your best... There''s no burden and it''ll be much easier." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chu ran burst out laughing, "sister Mo, I''m convinced of your comfort." "Must!" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and looked complacent. As time advanced, Gu Beichen came to pick up Jian Mo and went to the auditorium. Because of the influence of Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue in the legal profession, many people in the industry did come today. Ye Chenyu came, and Chen also asked for leave to watch the lawsuit. Chu Zixiao and Tang Yu also came and sat with Jane mo. "Zixiao, are you busy tonight?" Jane Mo asked across Gu Beichen. "Huh?" Chu Zixiao glanced at Jian mo. "Let''s have dinner together in the evening?" Jane Mo said, "I''m going to the hospital to give birth these two days. Then I have to have a month. Let''s get together in advance." "OK." Chu Zixiao answered. At the right time, the judge came in, and Jane Mo didn''t continue to say. This criminal defense case has received extensive attention from people in the industry. After this fight, no matter Mo Shaochen or Li Xiaoyue eliminated their personal relationship, Mo Shaochen did not give in to each other at the technical level, and Li Xiaoyue also fought with full sincerity. Under the battle of lips, guns and words, everyone saw the style of the two people in the professional field. However, the result is really as people think, there are no accidents and miracles. Mo Shaochen won! Li Xiao was a little sad when she was young, but she knew the result. "Unhappy?" Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue with a shallow smile in his mouth. "Yu Gong, very lost." Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen with a smile, "in private, very happy." Mo Shaochen hung his eyes and smiled. "Let''s go to have dinner with my aunt, and then I''ll pack up for you." Li Xiaoyue''s little loss was swept away at the thought of finally ending her husband and wife''s separated life. Outside the court, many reporters were surrounded. Today, no matter whether the result is expected or not, after all, Mo Shaochen is a topic figure. The legal platform and some entertainment media all want to interview. Unfortunately, Mo Shaochen and others did not appear in the sight of everyone, but drove away directly. Leave a group of media to excavate the situation in today''s court with various relations and make up reports that attract the attention of the audience. ¡­¡­ "Mommy, you''ve been tossing around with your mobile phone for nearly an hour!" Jian Jie looked at Jian Mo and didn''t know what she was doing with her mobile phone. She frowned tightly and looked worried at Jian Mo''s stomach. Jane Mo glanced sideways at him, a little jealous. It seems that the milk bag cares about her, but how does she feel that he doesn''t care about her at all, only about what''s in her stomach?! Jane Mo is very depressed. She feels she needs to ignore Jane Jie''s behavior of "abandoning" her from small to large. Jian Mo doesn''t intend to talk to him when he sees Jian mo. Jian Jie''s face is dark. With the growth of age, the baby fat on Jian Jie''s face has gradually faded. Now he is really more and more like Gu Beichen. He is really a reduced version, no difference at all. "Jane Mo is addicted to matchmaking recently. She is excited about her last toss before she dies!" J playing games on one side, make complaints about it again. As soon as Jane Jie heard this, she looked at Jane Mo with a disappointed face, as if she was really bored. "One pregnant fool for three years, sure enough!" Jane Jie shook her head and shook her head with a sigh like a little adult. "I''m stupid," said Jane Mo, who was scolded so much that it doesn''t matter. "Anyway, you despise my IQ even if you''re not pregnant." Jane Jie rolled his eyes and didn''t want to talk to Jane mo. his father was tossed by him. He was light hearted. Anyway, Mommy wouldn''t listen to him. "Shit!" Suddenly, J shouted. Everyone looked at him and saw him shouting excitedly: "is this new map awesome?! the game of Longteng is really a surprise all the time... Ha ha, see how I conquer it!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Jane Mo and Jane Jie looked at J and said nothing at the same time. Gu Beichen leaned against the sofa, glanced at J and continued to talk to Xiao Jing on the phone, "you are fully responsible for the next things, and you don''t have to ask me for instructions." Xiao Jing lay back on his seat and asked helplessly, "Chen Shao, next, did you tell me that you want to take paternity leave, then parental leave, and then take some leave that I haven''t heard of, but with Mrs. Shao and your upcoming baby?" "Become very smart." Gu Beichen said highly, "however, you can also understand that I''m trying to promote the relationship between you and Zhao Qianyu... If you think so, you''ll be more comfortable." Xiao Jing immediately roared angrily, "Chen Shao, do you promote feelings at work? Even if you have to accompany Shao''s wife and children, you can ask for leave for Mao Suzanne now. I don''t even work overtime to fall in love. I want to promote feelings at work!" Gu Beichen has a headache. "Susan is my secretary. I don''t work. She wants to fish in troubled waters. I can''t help it." "..." Xiao Jing opened his mouth and felt that Gu Beichen was such a scoundrel. What else could he say? "Shit!" Xiao Jing said something gnashing his teeth and hung up directly. The baby''s heart is bitter, and the baby has complaints Xiao Jing looked bitterly at the pile of documents to be signed in front of him. He felt more and more that he had taken the most road in his life. It was really Chen Shao''s routine. At the beginning, Chen Shao trusted him so much and promoted him directly from special help to vice president. How moved he is?! Now think about it, he is a second-class goods! All right! Chapter 1216 Gu Beichen hung up the phone and didn''t feel embarrassed at all because he cheated Xiao Jing. "I think the emperor''s boss can let Xiao Jing do it." Jane Mo is still chatting on wechat with her mobile phone. Gu Beichen smiled, took the original book and continued to look at it. "I don''t care," his voice sounded helpless. "Anyway, I''m considering opening a large marriage agency and then a TV dating show..." Listening to the voice of Beichen Tucao, Jane froze was stunned. Then he joked along, "you have the ability to make complaints about it. Are you afraid that I dare not play?" "..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and sighed, "Mo''er, are you sure you want to take care of their affairs?" "I think it''s a pity that things end like this." Jian Mo went to Gu Beichen and sat beside him with his empty help. "Ah Chen, Zixiao is not wrong, and Zhang Nian is not wrong." Gu Beichen twirled Jian Mo''s hair with his fingers and said casually and calmly, "if the problem between them can''t be diluted by time, it''s the best ending now." "But..." what else did Jane Mo want to say? When she looked up at Beichen, she stopped talking. Gu Beichen knows what Jane Mo is thinking. The so-called gathering at night is actually that she made an appointment with Zixiao and Zhang Nian at the same time. "Mo''er, what if they get hurt more after today?" Gu Beichen asked softly. Jane Mo was silent. She didn''t think that letting Zhang Nian and Zixiao meet like this today would deepen each other''s pain But before the last minute, she always felt she could work hard. "But I''ve already agreed with Zhang Nian. She finally said to have dinner with me at night..." Jane Mo was a little depressed. Gu Beichen gently moved her hair with his fingers, circle by circle, and gradually became a little distracted. Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen. There was a trace of sadness on her beautiful face. "I suddenly thought..." Gu Beichen frowned lightly, and a touch of thought was in his deep ink pupil. "When you were pregnant with her," he glanced at Jian Mo''s stomach, "every day she was busy making matchmaking and considering emotional things... Will she become too emotional because of you in the future?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. She felt that her family''s general manager was thinking about problems now, which always made her a little unable to respond. Looking at Jian Mo''s ignorant face, Gu Beichen smiled. Regardless of whether Jian Jie and j were also in the living room, he grabbed Jian Mo and kissed her at the corner of her mouth. "As long as you don''t get hurt by feelings, it''s better to have rich feelings... What makes people happier in this world than the surrounding of all kinds of feelings Gu Beichen said this. Jian Jie looked at him sideways. In his small head, he suddenly thought of the things he hadn''t seen for a long time Jane Jie glanced at her little mouth and didn''t know whether it was good now?! ¡­¡­ Zhang Nian sat on the chair outside the examination room, looking at the wechat and chatting with Jian mo. Recently, she has been very calm. I still think of Chu Zixiao, but I am grateful. There is no suffocation in my heart before. Some are just silent blessings. It''s just that Jane Mo asked her to have dinner at the moment. She had an unspeakable feeling in her heart. Inexplicably resisted, but unfortunately, I couldn''t stand the death of a pregnant woman who was going to give birth. In fact, she could almost think that Jane Mo asked her to have dinner for Chu Zixiao "Alas!" Zhang Nian sighed gently, pressed out the mobile phone and installed it. At the right time, there was a movement from the door of the examination room. Zhang Nian got up and saw Qiao Jinnian personally pushing Yang Yi out. "How''s mom?" Zhang Nian asked hurriedly. The day after tomorrow, Wenrun and Qiao said, "it''s OK to go home for the new year if they don''t have a big problem. Wenrun and Qiao can go home for the next year." "Really?!" As soon as Zhang read, his eyes lit up. No one likes to be in the hospital, especially during the Chinese New Year. Qiao Jinnian nodded, continued to push Yang Yi''s wheelchair and walked to the elevator with Zhang Nian. The two chatted all the way. After Yang Yi was brought to the hospital bed, Qiao Jinnian said, "eat together at night. Go to the hospital canteen. There are many people. My aunt is in a happy mood and is good for her condition." Qiao Jinnian found that Chu Zixiao hadn''t come recently. He thought about what Zhang Nian should have said to him and pulled away. If he can''t catch the opportunity, I''m afraid he won''t be able to do it. Thinking, Qiao Jinnian looked at Yang Yi with a smile in his eyes. "Yes, I checked it out today. I feel much better..." Yang Yi likes Qiao Jinnian, and hopes Zhang Nian can have a good marriage. Naturally, I don''t spare any effort in assists. "Let''s eat together in the hospital canteen tonight." Zhang Nian naturally understood the thoughts of Yang Yi and Qiao Jinnian, "not tonight. I... I have an appointment." Yang Yi and Qiao Jinnian were stunned. Since Yang Yi is in the hospital and Zhang Nian''s time is spent working, it can be said that she has completely lost contact with her friends. This suddenly said that she had an appointment. Their first reaction was that she resisted further contact with Qiao Jinnian. The atmosphere was a little awkward, which was felt by others in the ward. "Well, I''ll open the water first..." Zhang Nianzhe took a hot kettle from the corner of his mouth and hurried out of the ward. Yang Yi sighed until Zhang Nian''s back disappeared in the ward, looked at Qiao Jinnian and said, "Xiao Nian, she..." "Aunt, I am a patient person." Qiao Jinnian said with a smile, "if you refuse once or twice, can you refuse three or four times?" Yang Yi listened, sighed and said, "it''s hard for you." "Why are you embarrassed?" Qiao Jinnian smiled, "don''t I have aunt support?!" Yang Yi immediately laughed. Her idea is very simple now, whether it''s Qiao Jinnian who has thoughts on Xiaonian or Chu Zixiao who Xiaonian likes... What Xiaonian chose in the end is what she accepted. What grudges, what past, after so much experience, she also opened her eyes. Only children''s happiness is the most important. However, she will no longer give Xiaonian any guidance. Xiaonian is a child with independent ideas. She will think about who is suitable for her very clearly. ¡­¡­ After Jane Mo got into the car, she sent a message to Zhang Nian and confirmed that she was on her way, so she was a little relieved No matter what step Zhang Nian and Zixiao can take in the end, she feels that by giving each other one last chance and not recalling the future, she finds that they just lack an opportunity. Just thinking, Jane Mo''s cell phone rang. She looked at the call. It was Chu Zixiao, "Zixiao?" "You haven''t arrived yet?" Chu Zixiao looked at the appointed time and frowned slightly. Beichen and Momo are always punctual. The agreed time has come. They haven''t come yet. He''s worried about something. "Just after the elevated road, the traffic jam lasted for more than half an hour and just cleared..." Jane Mo said, "we''ll be there in a minute. You order first." "Well, good." Chu Zixiao replied, "don''t worry, just come slowly." "I know." Jane Mo answered with a smile and hung up the phone. In fact, they deliberately went out half an hour late, mainly to give Zixiao and Zhang Nian some time to meet If it''s too embarrassing, naturally they''ll solve it when they come. If we can meet and find that we miss each other, it''s the best "Oh!" Suddenly, a sudden pain came, and Jane Mo felt something wrong. "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo, and Jun''s face was worried. Jane Mo''s face was already bad. She covered her stomach with her hands and said with her face twisted together: "ah Chen... I, it seems that I''m going to have a baby..." Chapter 1217 "Ah?!" Gu Beichen was stunned at first, and then reacted, "don''t you say there are still a few days?" Although he recently read a lot of books about parenting or childbirth, it was the first time he faced their child''s birth with Jian mo. for a time, Gu Beichen was a little flustered. Jane Mo swallowed hard, "ah Chen, you, don''t be nervous... You drive well first... It''s not all at once, you''ll come out all at once..." Gu Beichen swallowed secretly, looked at Jian Mo again, and hurriedly said, "take a deep breath, don''t be nervous... Let''s go to the hospital first." "But Zixiao and Zhang Nian..." "When is it? You still have the mood to take care of other people''s affairs." Gu Beichen was a little dry. When the car turned to Huakang hospital, he hurriedly dialed Dr. GE''s phone, "Dr. Ge, Mo''er seems to be giving birth." "I''m on duty today. I''m in the hospital." Dr. Ge said hurriedly. After explaining several matters needing attention to Gu Beichen, he hung up and asked someone to answer at the door. Gu Beichen took a breath secretly. While observing the situation of Jian Mo, he drove the car to the hospital quickly but steadily The sound of the roller wheel becomes a little urgent in the obstetrics and gynecology at night, full of expectation and joy under tension. "Mr. Gu, do you want to enter the delivery room?" Dr. Ge first looked at Jian Mo''s situation, and then had time to ask Gu Beichen slowly. Gu Beichen''s cold face had been screwed together, and Mo Tong looked at Dr. Ge fiercely, "do you want to go first..." "Don''t be so nervous, it''s not so fast!" Dr. Ge smiled and looked at Gu Beichen. "Mr. Gu, if you want to go in, go disinfect and change your disinfection clothes first. If you don''t want to..." "I''ll go in!" Gu Beichen said hurriedly, completely losing his habitual indifference. He has been looking forward to meeting his little life with Mo''er for a long time He missed the birth of Xiaojie and the loss of Xiaoyan. He put all his regrets on his little life to make up for it. How could he be unwilling. However, he didn''t seem to be in a hurry when he saw Dr. Ge. Mo''er was a little angry. Gu Beichen''s action is very fast, but he also disinfects carefully. Jane froth was in labor pains. Although she was not the first child, there was no less pain. Before, because the fetal position was not correct, and then it had not been adjusted, this baby Jianmo could not have a natural birth and had to have a caesarean section. "Ah Chen, do you want to..." Jian Mo is a little short of breath in pain. "Do you want to ask Zixiao, Zhang Nian... Has Zhang Nian gone yet..." Gu Beichen saw that Jian Mo was still thinking about Chu Zixiao and Zhang Nian, and his cold face tightened, "we''re not here, just give them two opportunities. You can have a baby first." Jian Mo saw that Gu Beichen was more nervous than her and burst out laughing. Dr. GE has made preparations, and several nurses on the side also smiled. Gu Beichen basically accompanies Jian Mo to the production inspection every time. Occasionally, he is too busy to attend. There are few opportunities. People here basically know him. Look at Gu Beichen''s appearance at the moment. There is nothing like the president of the emperor. He is a man who has never experienced his wife having children and is more nervous than his wife. In the delivery room, it was carried out in an orderly way Gu Beichen accompanied Jane Mo all the way, holding her hand in one hand and gently stroking her hair in the other. Dr. Ge is the best gynecologist in Huakang hospital. There was no accident in the whole process. The little princess was born smoothly. Gu Beichen looked at the wrinkled little princess. He didn''t rest assured. Instead, he was more and more at a loss and didn''t dare to touch it. He was afraid that his strength would hurt the little princess. "I''ll weigh it first..." Dr. Ge said with a smile. "You accompany Mrs. Gu back to the ward first, and then come and hold the little princess." Gu Beichen immediately frowned, "leave Mo''er alone in the ward?" Seeing Gu Beichen''s dissatisfaction, Dr. Ge really couldn''t help laughing, "does Gu always have to separate?" She questioned, "Mrs. Gu will be taken care of by a nurse. You must get the child, otherwise you can''t leave the newborn baby examination room." Gu Beichen screwed off his eyebrows and kept holding Jianmo''s hand. It was obvious that he was unwilling to leave Jianmo, who had a hard child, and worried about the little princess. "Take Mrs. Gu back to the ward first!" Dr. Ge said with a smile and motioned to the nurse. Together with Gu Beichen, they pushed the hospital bed to the operating room. There are a lot of people outside. Ye Chenyu, Chen Yu, Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue, who had originally returned to mother Ye''s house for dinner, rushed over with mother Ye. Cen Lanxi and Gu Moyuan, Gu Ci, Gu Yuan, Gu Nanyi, Su Junli and other su people, as well as J who had just arrived with Jian Jie, were all outside the delivery room. "Born?" CEN Lanxi asked happily, hurried forward, looked at Jian Mo and said, "Xiao Mo, it''s hard." Jane Mo''s eyes gently fanned, indicating that she didn''t work hard. Her heart is warm now. When she gave birth to Xiaojie, there was only Junli... Xiaoyan had an accident. It''s nice to have so many families around her now. Thinking, Jian Mo looked at Su Jun Li. He was still the gentle piano prince when he first met. Just years of precipitation, she is happy, but he hasn''t! Jian Mo was pushed into the VIP ward. It was reserved in advance. It was just for childbirth at the beginning. Now it has directly become postpartum repair "Where''s the child?!" When everyone arrived in the ward, Gu Nanyi frowned and asked. "Beichen, go and get the child. Xiaomo has us here. Are you still worried?" Mother Ye smiled and said, "your mother, me and Xiaomo Ganma, which one doesn''t take care of the child?" Gu Ci and others also smiled and urged Gu Beichen to go quickly. Everyone wanted to see the newly added little princess of Gu''s family. Most importantly, Jane Mo also wants to see her daughter. Gu Beichen attached himself and gently kissed Jian Mo on his forehead, "I''ll hold my daughter first..." Jane Mo nodded with a smile and motioned him to go quickly. After Gu Beichen registered outside the newborn baby examination room, a nurse came out with the little princess in her arms "The baby weighs five kilograms and nine Liang. Later, there will be a special infant nursing nurse to take care of the baby. If Mr. Gu needs to ask and do anything, you can ask her." "OK, thank you..." Gu Beichen said, carefully taking over the little princess. Looking at it as if he was the only little princess with a palm in his hand, Gu Beichen''s heart was melted by a little bit of soft waxy She is the little lover of his previous life and the little princess of this life. How nice! Jane Mo''s ward is full of joy because of the arrival of the little princess The delivery room processing personnel are counting the products "left" by the three people before and after production in the hospital. "Eh?" Suddenly, a nurse whispered, "why is there a placenta missing?" Chapter 1218 "Well?" Another nurse stopped her hand. "Aren''t they all over there?" "But one is missing, only two!" The former nurse frowned, "I don''t know who''s less?!" Generally, if the pregnant woman''s family do not want the placenta, they will handle it uniformly. There are three producers today, none of them want... But now there is one less. "No?!" Another nurse came and wondered, "is it still in the delivery room?" "Impossible?!" When cleaning the delivery room, they can''t have anything left. "I''ll have a look." Said one of the nurses. After a while, the nurse who went to see came back, raised the bag in her hand and said, "it''s really still in the delivery room..." "..." the other two nurses frowned and wondered if they were really careless for a while. ¡­¡­ The mobile phone screen flickered in the dark of the ink palace, with a vibrating beep. Shi Shaoqin opened his eyes, first looked at the direction of star, then took his mobile phone and got up and went out of the bedroom. "Well?" Shi Shaoqin is indifferent and light. "Qin Shao, Jane Mo''s placenta has been obtained." Shi Shaoqin frowned, "isn''t there a few days before the due date?" "It''s early. Fortunately, I''m afraid it will be early these days. I''ve been sending someone to watch in the hospital." "According to what Xi Cheng told you before, arrange a special plane to deliver it as soon as possible." Shi Shaoqin ordered. "It''s already being done, and the airport is also temporarily arranging special flights." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered, paused and asked, "is it a son or a daughter?" "Daughter!" "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered and hung up. Shi Shaoqin went to the window of the corridor and looked at the rolling sea under the ink night. In his mind, it was the look of Jian Mo with a big stomach when he was in the ink palace Now, star is two years old, and Mo''er and Beichen have their own children. Shi Shaoqin drooped his eyes and gently spilled an uncontrollable smile from the corners of his beautiful mouth As a brother, what kind of gift will star give his sister?! ¡­¡­ It should have been happy, but Gu Beichen''s face at this time is as black as it is. Every time the nurse comes in to get blood stasis for Jian Mo, it''s like going to the execution ground. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo painfully. She looked at the way she endured the pain every time the nurse pressed her stomach. She couldn''t wait to throw the nurse out directly. "If you don''t clean up the congestion, it will be more troublesome..." Gu Nanyi dragged Gu Beichen to the lounge outside the ward. "There you are, the nurse is more nervous, and Mo Mo is afraid you are worried, so she has to bear it." "Why is it so painful to have children?" Gu Beichen is dissatisfied. Gu Nanyi listened and smiled, "Beichen, what you look like now really reminds me of your childhood." Gu Beichen''s face was cold again. His eyes swept across the room and all the people looking at him were covered with haze on Jun''s face. Finally, Gu Beichen''s eyes fell on Su Junli. Su Jun''s slender hand gently held the cup and drank water. He glanced at Gu Beichen and slowly opened his mouth: "when he gave birth to Xiaojie, Mo Mo gave birth naturally. He didn''t suffer so much this time." Gu Beichen thinks he''s just looking for abuse. It''s all right. What''s su Junli doing? Lu Hanyu looked at his son, sighed secretly, and said, "we have so many people here that Beichen is also impatient... We''ll go back first. I''ll cook soup tomorrow." "I said I''d go back and cook!" Mother ye said. "I see. If you want to make soup for foam, you have to line up..." Gu Nanyi laughed and joked. Suddenly, everyone laughed. The crowd dispersed one after another. Gu CI looked at the time and frowned slightly. Zixiao has put down her love for Xiao Jian now. Xiao Jian has a baby, but he hasn''t come yet? Is there no notice or something delayed?! Thinking, Gu CI walked to Gu Beichen, "don''t Zixiao know that Xiao Jian was born?" "He has some things delayed..." Gu Beichen said without thinking. "Oh!" Gu CI nodded. Without thinking much, he said hello and left first. No one informed Chu Zixiao. One of them was ignored. Everyone thought that who had notified, but in the end, no one had notified. After Gu Beichen and Gu CI left, he didn''t call Chu Zixiao to say that Jian Mosheng was born Lying on the delivery bed, Mo''er is still worrying about Zixiao and Zhang Nian. In this case, he will give them a chance to get along. It''s just that no one knows what the result of this relationship is except Zhang Nian and Chu Zixiao. "Daddy, I''ll stay here with my sister in the evening." Jian Jie rubbed to Gu Beichen. "I promise I won''t disturb mommy''s rest." "I want it too, I want it too!" J hurried to say, "I can take care of Xiao Jie here." Jian Jie secretly glared at J, the meaning is very obvious: who wants you to take care of, don''t rob my sister with me. J raised his eyebrows and bared his lower teeth: I take care of my little niece. What''s none of your business?! Jian Jie wrinkled his small nose, clenched Gu Beichen''s fingers with his small hand, raised his small face and said, "you, mommy and my sister are here. I don''t want to go home. It''s empty..." If you can''t be coquettish, come and sell cute. Jian Jie always uses these two moves to Gu Beichen. "At the beginning, I only had Mommy, and my sister could have daddy and brother. How nice!" Seeing that Gu Beichen didn''t speak, Jian Jie directly took a dose of cruel medicine. Gu Beichen felt guilty at the bottom of his eyes, squatted down and picked up Jian Jie, "stay here tonight and go home tomorrow..." "Good!" Jane Jie blinked black eyes, grinned and promised. Tomorrow is tomorrow. Anyway, after tomorrow, there will be another tomorrow... Isn''t that the so-called ''tomorrow after tomorrow''?! Jane Mo fell asleep in pain in the middle of the night. Gu Beichen took care of such a small child for the first time. Although he had checked a lot of information in advance, he was still very clumsy when he started. But such clumsiness falls in the eyes of outsiders, full of fatherly love. The dawn of winter, after driving away the night, gradually expels the cold in the air, leaving a warm breath. Xiao Jing went to the city to deal with the problem. Only in the morning did she hear Susan say that Jane Mosheng had died. She immediately drove back and couldn''t take a rest. The car drove directly into Huakang hospital. As soon as it stopped, I saw a panic ahead. He frowned slightly and saw a familiar figure in the flustered crowd Coming forward, Xiao Jing asked what had happened to the nurse who had just assisted at the door. After hearing the nurse''s trembling voice, Xiao Jing suddenly changed his face. Without thinking, he turned and hurried to the obstetrics and inpatient department. Gu Beichen just foolishly changed the diaper for the little princess. The little princess was afraid of being uncomfortable. Her mouth was open and her eyes were closed. The one who cried was sharp. "Daddy, I''ll come next time..." Jane Jie was very dissatisfied. "My sister doesn''t like you!" "..." Gu Beichen looked gloomy, looked at the crying little princess and looked at Jian Jie. Someone always grabs his little lover. What the hell is this?! Jane Mo looked at her father and son early in the morning, because her daughter was tit for tat, full of happiness. "Chen Shao!" Xiao Jing came in a hurry, and his lips moved. After all, he said congratulations to Jian mo. Gu Beichen saw that Xiao Jing had something to do, explained to Jian Mo and j, and left the ward. After coming out, Xiao Jing said in a very dignified voice: "Chen Shao, something''s wrong..." Chapter 1219 Gu Beichen looked at Xiao Jing with a slight frown. He didn''t think it was the emperor''s business. Xiao Jing''s face was dignified. "Li Shao seems to have had an accident..." looking at Gu beichendun''s changed face, he hurried to say, "Li Shao doesn''t have a big problem, but why Ning is very serious." "What''s going on?" Gu Beichen''s voice was slightly heavy. Xiao Jing shook his head. "I just got to the hospital and saw the ambulance. I didn''t think too much, but I saw Li Shao covered in blood... When I went there, they had gone to the operating room and asked the nurse, but they just said a very serious car accident." "I''ll go down and have a look..." Gu Beichen said and went to the ward first. "There''s something over Yunze. I''ll go there." After a pause, he looked at the time first. "Wait, mom, they''ll come. If something happens, let J call the nurse, huh?" "Chen Shao, I''m staring here." Susan just walked in. "Yes." Gu Beichen looked at Susan, kissed Jane Mo on the forehead, explained to j and Jane Jie, and then went to the operating room with Xiao Jing. ¡­¡­ The hospital has become dignified because of the patients just sent in. The entire Huakang hospital, as long as there is no operation, all the attending doctors have gathered in one operating room, especially neurosurgery and cardiothoracic and pulmonary department. "The patient''s heart stopped." "Prepare for electric shock..." "No breathing!" "Add 50 and come again!" "Bang!" "Continue..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± In the operating room, with the sound of rescue, the surrounding air was frozen directly. On the operating bed, he Yining was covered with blood. He looked terrible and had no sign of life. "Add another 100!" "Ready..." "Bang!" With the electric shock, he Yining''s body is like a puppet played by others, but the line is broken. Everyone''s breath was twisted, and the doctor with the electric defibrillator had frowned. He looked at the line without any fluctuation on the ECG instrument, frowned deeply, and looked up at the operating observation room above. Li Yunze lay on the glass, covered in blood, looking the same horror. But the blood on his body is basically not his own. It''s all what makes him feel better. Li Yunze has lost his calm in the past. On his handsome face, he trembles with uncontrollable fear. He is not standing in the operating room at all, as if the world is his domineering and fierce. The doctor lowered his eyes and said, "again!" "Ready..." "Bang!" "Didi -- didi --" "The patient''s heart beats again!" The nurse screamed with excitement as if she had discovered the new world. People involved in the operation have never felt so beautiful when they heard the fluctuating sound of the heart rate instrument. "Prepare for the operation..." the attending doctor said calmly. The original moment of joy, because the attending doctor''s words, people were nervous again. Every doctor here knows very well that the patient''s condition is very bad, which can be said to be terrible. Even if the heartbeat is restored, it is almost impossible to complete such a large operation without stopping the patient''s heartbeat and many minor operations. But at this moment, no one wants to face it. Li Yunze, in the observation room, just took a breath. If he Yining had any problems, he would collapse first. The door of the observation room was pushed open, and Gu Beichen came in. He first looked at Li Yunze, and his blood made him frown at once. Come forward and look down at the observation window He Yining''s face was as white as a piece of white paper under the operating light, without any blood color. "What''s going on?" Gu Beichen twisted his eyebrows and asked, looking at Li Yunze on one side. Li Yunze''s face was full of pain. The sadness under remorse filled all his nerves, as if to tear him. Gu Beichen has never seen Li Yunze like this. Even if Yunze''s brother left, he didn''t suffer like this. He came forward and patted Li Yunze on the shoulder. This is the support from his brother. This time, Li Yunze was in a tense mood, completely paralyzed, lost his support, hugged his head, and slowly squatted down in pain "I''d rather not, if not!" Li Yunze''s voice choked. "Beichen, I don''t know what to do? If Yining left like this, what should I do? She hasn''t had time to be happy, and I haven''t had time to love her. This ending is not what I want... Do you understand, it''s not!" Gu Beichen squatted down slowly, and Mo Tong looked at the painful Li Yunze deeply. The big palm pinched Li Yunze''s shoulder, and Gu Beichen tried to let him calm down a little. "I looked at Yining, covered with blood," Li Yunze looked up at Gu Beichen with scarlet eyes. "I''m a doctor. Every operation, I''m dealing with human blood, but at that moment, I''ve never had fear..." Gu Beichen frowned. Now he only knew there was a car accident, but there was a car accident early this morning. Why? At this moment, Li Yunze''s mood was obviously unstable, and the pain invaded all his nerves. "It''s all me. If it weren''t for me, Yining wouldn''t lie on the operating bed..." Li Yunze''s eyes became scarlet. "If it wasn''t for me, she wouldn''t struggle on the edge of life like this. It''s all me!" Li Yunze hugged his head again in pain. His hands gradually bent and tore his hair. His mind was full of the scene of the car accident The sharp brake sound, the crazy crash sound and the decisive breath of death filled all his nerves, and he could hardly breathe because of the pain. In the operating room, the operation is going on nervously. While performing the operation, he Yining should also be prevented from suddenly stopping his heart during the operation, which is so difficult that all doctors who perform and cooperate with the operation held their breath. "Director Li, it''s too tricky next." The second deputy doctor twisted his eyebrows and said. Director Li, the chief surgeon, closed his eyebrows tightly. He looked at why Ning''s current operation, and the gravity of the fundus was deeper. He looked up because Li Yunze and Gu Beichen were squatting. He could only see half of them. "This operation, if you want to be foolproof, only Li Shao can do it..." director Li said in a heavy voice, "but Li Shao''s state at the moment..." He stopped talking, but everyone understood. There are two situations in which doctors can''t treat themselves, one is that they can''t treat themselves, and the other is that they can''t treat the most important people. In both cases, one is not concerned, the other is too concerned... There is a great possibility of losing. Moreover, Li Yunze''s mood at the moment can''t calm down and carry out such a subtle operation. "Director Li..." Director Li took back his sight, looked aside and the nurse said, "call the observation room. I want to talk to Li Shao!" Chapter 1220 When the telephone rang in the observation room, Gu Beichen glanced at the operating room, then got up to pick it up and pressed the hands-free key. "Li Shao, the patient''s current situation is..." director Li said why he Ning''s current situation while performing the operation. "I''m sure there''s up to 50% or 60% of the heart operation. You should do this operation, Li Shao!" Li Yunze didn''t speak, but the pain on his face was getting better and better. Everyone is waiting for Li Yunze to make a decision, but it is also clear that he has no way to make this decision. In his current situation, even standing in front of the operating table, he can''t have an operation, let alone such a delicate operation? Even if he Yining himself has no way to recover, but if Li Yunze goes to the operating table, the final result will not be an accident. He will only feel that he has no ability to save he Yining and his death is entirely caused by him. Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze. He couldn''t make this decision for him. At first, when Mo''er was lying on the operating table and Yunze''s hand was injured, Yunze asked him if he believed him Thaksin! But now, Yunze doesn''t believe in himself. The situation in the operating room is getting more and more tense. With the passage of time, everyone knows that it will be more and more unfavorable to he Yining. The doctor''s forehead was tight with sweat. Taking back his sight, Gu Beichen went directly to Li Yunze, picked him up and forced him to face him, "Yunze, Yining''s last chance is in your hand. Do you believe in yourself?" Li Yunze''s lips were trembling, which was a sign of fear. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil is getting deeper and deeper, "if you don''t stand in front of the operating table, Yining has something wrong, you will regret... Because you will blame yourself. Maybe you have an operation at this moment, and she still has hope to survive. If you stand in front of the operating table, she has something wrong, you will still blame yourself, and you will feel that you are unable to save her..." Li Yunze''s fear at the bottom of his eyes, because Gu Beichen''s words have been strong and can''t be waved away. Gu Beichen knew that his words at the moment were too cruel to Yunze. "Since the two results are the same, Yining, no matter what happens, you won''t let go of yourself..." Gu Beichen gritted his teeth, "then why can''t you gamble?" "I......" Li Yunze''s hand trembled. As a doctor with a scalpel, it''s fatal! "I believed you could operate on Mo''er with one hand..." Gu Beichen gritted his teeth. "Then why can''t you believe you now? You can do it for Yining!" Li Yunze was stunned by the questioning, but he couldn''t shake the fear from the bottom of his eyes. "Think about it one by one," Gu Beichen said in a deep voice. "If Yining is gone, one by one will lose her mother. She has no time to have a complete home!" The operation has reached the most difficult place. Director Li tried it several times and couldn''t start. "Call the observation room again..." director Li''s voice became hoarse. The phone was soon connected again. Director Li kept his eyes on the operation. "Li Shao, if you can''t get through here, there''s no way to do the next operation... You have to decide as soon as possible whether you want to do it or me?" The atmosphere became stiff and dignified again. Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze. There was encouragement in Mo Tong, and he didn''t need any reason to support his brother. Li Yunze swallowed, his Adam''s apple rolled up and down hard, and then heard his hoarse voice, "I''ll come!" Two words, let everyone''s heart down. Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a smile, came forward, put his hand on Li Yunze''s shoulder, and then curled up and pinched his shoulder. "Yunze, Mo''er was born last night. It''s a daughter. You haven''t had time to take a look. My daughter is waiting for you and Yining..." paused, "I have company one by one!" Li Yunze''s eyes twinkled with gratitude. He knew that Beichen was to give him encouragement and relax in order to make him look forward to something. At this moment, if he can''t do the operation calmly, Yining may have no hope of survival. Nodding, Li Yunze turned and left the operating observation room Withdraw your clothes, put on your medical robe, clean, disinfect, and enter the operating room The nurse came forward and put on his surgical suit and gloves "First knife transposition!" Li Yunze''s voice was full of complex emotions. "Transposition!" Director Li answered. At the moment when Li Yunze came forward, he carefully changed the position of the main knife with him. He Yining''s chest was pushed to the maximum position, and his heart could not see any movement with the naked eye. Li Yunze closed his eyes and forced himself to calm down at this moment. Yining, if life can come back, I won''t go around with you like this. Why did we take so many detours when we were young? I haven''t had time to say ''love you'', you won''t be willing to leave, will you? You waited for me to say ''love you'' for a youth. If you leave like this, won''t you have regrets? And our one by one. She has no time to have a home. She also wants to play with Xiaojie By the way, Jane Mo gave birth to a daughter. Beichen said that he had company one by one Li Yunze gently clenched his hand, and then suddenly opened his eyes. He subconsciously looked up at the observation room and saw Gu Beichen nodding slightly towards him. He bit his teeth, nodded again, took back his sight and spread his hand to one side: "aortic blocking forceps!" The instrument nurse on one side hurriedly put the aortic blocking forceps into Li Yunze''s hand The operation continued, and it was not easy for Li Yunze to join. Li Yunze''s mouth closed because he resisted tension and fear. At this moment, there was only one idea in his mind. Why does he want to live! However, as a doctor, he knows very well how hopeless it is to live with Yining But even if it is very small, he can''t give up. Gu Beichen has been standing in the observation room watching. He clearly knows that Yunze will get some support with him here. The atmosphere in the operating room became more and more dignified with the passage of operation time. This is a large-scale operation, which not only tests the ability of doctors, but also tests physical strength, endurance and pressure resistance. "Wipe your sweat!" Li Yunze''s voice was frozen and slightly tilted his head. While the nurse hurried forward to wipe his sweat, Li Yunze had spread his hands and asked for another surgical tool. He slightly clenched the surgical tool. When the operation was here, there was no room for mistakes Everyone held their breath and watched Li Yunze move slowly Suddenly! ''drop - '' When a harsh voice came, I heard the anxious voice of the nurse: "the patient''s heartbeat stopped..." This sound was like tearing a nerve''s hand. Li Yunze petrified in an instant and completely forgot his reaction! Chapter 1221 Li Yunze looked at he Yining who was not angry at all. At that moment, his hands began to tremble uncontrollably "No, no... no!" Li Yunze and the mad beast, scarlet eyes, "Yining, I won''t let you die... You have to hold on, I won''t let you die... Ah -" In the operating room, there was a roar. At this moment, Li Yunze seemed crazy, but he seemed to have never been calm. Everyone looked at the heart rate instrument without fluctuation, and their hearts were heavy. The medical staff who can stand in this operating room are the best in Huakang. At this moment, everyone clearly knows why it''s better than bad However, Li Yunze did not give up. In other words, he doesn''t want to face the things in front of him. He hopes that miracles will happen. "Yining, you hold on, I hold on..." Li Yunze''s men quickly sutured the tiny blood vessels on the heart, "as long as you hold on, as long as you hold on, you can punish me whatever you want..." The hot tears spilled over his eyes, but Li Yunze had no time to wipe them. He was racing against the clock with death. Gu Beichen twisted his eyebrows and stood in the observation room. His ink pupil was frozen. He looked at the rapid movement of Li Yunze''s men, as if he had broken through his limit, which gave him an illusion that he saw the situation of Yunze''s brother in the operating room. "Yining, you hold on..." Li Yunze kept saying, as if he said so, why can Ning hear, "you hold on, I can make up for the previous time, I can be good to you, I can do anything!" Director Li stood aside and his nose suddenly sour. He is in the hospital and knows more or less why Li Shaohe would rather do something If time could really make up for it, wouldn''t it happen today?! ¡­¡­ Three years ago "The flight za7514 from Donghai city to Los Angeles has arrived at Los Angeles International Airport..." In Los Angeles International Airport, there was a broadcast of the arrival of the plane. Soon, the flow of people began to emerge at the exit. He Yining walks out with a complicated mood After all, she came back to this big city where she grew up. After a night of madness, she fled. But I didn''t expect to catch up with a fashion and run with a ball. "Mom, I''m so hungry..." On the luggage car, a little girl who looked only three or four years old, with a ball head, wearing a spring dress, a small red skirt, white pantyhose and black round head leather shoes dangling her lower legs. Because she was hungry, she held her stomach in her small hand and looked weak. However, those big bright eyes looked around curiously, as if everything was new to her. "You just had two plane meals. Are you still hungry?" He Yining, who was pushing the luggage cart, was not moved by the little girl''s coquettish selling Meng at all. He was just looking for someone left and right. The little girl tooted her mouth and looked up at he Yining discontentedly. "I''m still a child. It''s when I grow up. Of course, I''m hungry soon..." she wrinkled her little nose. "Besides, I''m different from you. I''m afraid of getting fat after eating!" "..." why Ning''s mouth twitched, "he Xinyao, don''t you feel bad if you don''t say I''m fat?!" The little girl blinked her eyes, spread her hands, and said in a soft voice, "your physique is easy to get fat. Blame me!" "..." he Yining secretly gritted his teeth and looked at the little girl. He really wanted to put it back in his stomach and have a new life. "Yining, here!" Why would you rather look at the sound There were no people, only people jumping up and down and waving their hands at her. Fang Zihan is a good friend in the dormitory of Yining University, but he Yining studies medicine and Fang Zihan studies media. It''s a beautiful accident for two people who can''t hit eight poles to be assigned to a dormitory At that time, the school medical school also had a name called Fang Zihan, with the same name, surname and word. When the school divided the dormitory, the photos of the two people were pasted incorrectly. Finally, Fang Zihan of the Department of media and he Yining of the Department of medicine became friends who talked about everything. Fang Zihan is very small, less than 160. In a pile of people, if you want to be seen, you can only jump up and down. Why rather push the luggage cart past, see Fang Zihan still carrying a SLR, make complaints about it immediately, "you say you are a top student in the media department, and finally run to be a paparazzi. Are you losing?" "What''s the loss? You can see the strong abdominal muscles of small fresh meat every day. Tut Tut, it''s very beautiful!" Fang Zihan raised his eyebrows, took out a box of chocolate from his backpack and handed it to the little girl, "one by one, aunt Han knows you must be hungry, so she has been prepared." "Aunt Han is the best." One by one, he happily took it and said "what''s up" to Fang Zihan. "Oh, my family is so sweet!" Fang Zihan looked satisfied. Why would you rather turn your eyes, "if it weren''t for this box of chocolates, do you think she would sell cute with you?" Fang Zihan stared, "what''s the truth?" The two immediately looked at each other and smiled. Out of the airport, Fang Zihan drove the small old car equipped by the magazine and took he Yining''s mother and daughter to the city "Yining, have you made arrangements for your return to the hospital?" Fang Zihan asked. Why rather take out a wet towel and hand it to one by one? Looking at one by one with a mouth full of chocolate, her face was disgusted, "return to Shuya!" Fang Zihan looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror. "Last time I heard Yanyan say that when Huakang went to Donghai to recruit a doctor, the school recommended you?" Then she looked ahead, "what do you think?" "No!" Why would you rather think than think. Fang Zihan looked in the rearview mirror again, "because of him?" As she spoke, her eyes fell on the food one by one. As the most famous private hospital in China, Huakang hospital is the place that medical students most want to go, whether in terms of medical equipment, technology, or salary and welfare. If it wasn''t for that man, why Yining''s goal should also be Huakang hospital?! He Yining was silent. Fang Zihan thought about being in the car one by one, so he turned off the topic. "Yan Yan is on duty today," Fang Zihan said. "Tomorrow, she shouted to have dinner together." Why should she rather respond? Xu mentioned him. Her thoughts were a little stagnant. She just looked at the happiness of eating chocolate one by one and gradually lost her mind. For so many years, there were good hospitals in other places to dig her, and she was reluctant to leave Los Angeles. Later, in an accident, I left... But I couldn''t help coming back. The persistence of the whole youth, whether happy or tired, seems to want to stay in this place with him and at least breathe the same piece of air, isn''t it? Thinking of this, why should the corners of my mouth be astringent. Chapter 1222 Fang Zihan directly pulled he Yining''s mother and daughter to their rented house, a small single apartment. "You and 11 will live here first these days," Fang Zihan said. "I''ve shown you several houses. You have time to go and have a look on the spot." "Aunt Han, you give me the house to live with my mother. Where do you live?" One by one looked up at Fang Zihan and asked. Fang Zihan squatted down and looked at them one by one. Then he learned the tone of a child and said, "aunt Han has to run a big news these two days and can''t go home." "Aunt Han is so hard!" One by one, he hugged Fang Zihan and kissed, "aunt Han must be trying to earn money to buy delicious food for one by one. It''s great!" "..." Fang Zihan was moved by her concern one by one. Finally, he found that when the little girl''s purpose was so "not simple", he felt heartache. He Yining held back his smile and looked sympathetically at Fang Zihan with the look of "it doesn''t matter. I''ll get used to it more than once". In the next few days, he Yining found nearby kindergartens one by one while docking the application procedures for re employment with Shuya hospital. The house is located in the family home of a unit close to the hospital and kindergarten. It is quiet and the rent is cheap, which meets the current living conditions. "One by one, I''ll go to bed early. I''ll go to kindergarten for a test tomorrow." He Yining spread the bed one by one, looked at his daughter holding the iPad there, didn''t know what to look at, frowned, "don''t play with electronic devices for a while, it''s bad for your eyes!" "Mom..." looking at Xiang He Yining one by one, the little finger pointed to the news on the tablet and said, "it looks like a cow in Huakang hospital. Why don''t you go to work here?" When she came back, aunt Han mentioned Huakang hospital. Just when she wanted to watch the video, she saw a news jump out The name of the hospital, or the word she knows! He Yining''s movement stagnated, and there was a touch of emotion on his face, which flashed by, but it was soon covered up. "Also, who is the ''he'' that Aunt Han said?" One by one, he Yining looked at him curiously, "is mom afraid of anyone?" "Yes!" He Yining said along with one by one, "because there is a very powerful senior in it. In the past, when my mother was at school, he always said that my mother didn''t like to go to Huakang, because of him!" She didn''t cheat her daughter. When she was at school, Li Yunze did scold her as a teaching assistant. She was born not to study medicine, otherwise she would harm others and herself. Thinking of this, why should I rather feel a touch of astringency in my heart From childhood to childhood, he always thought she was stupid and bad hearted... He didn''t like her, did he?! One by one, she looked at her mother painfully, but her voice was waxy and said, "but there are handsome millet in Huakang hospital, very handsome!" He Yining looked back at his daughter with a helpless face. I really don''t know who this character is like? She has two hobbies, one is eating, the other is that she has no resistance to the handsome and attractive opposite sex! The age span can range from a pink newborn baby to a veteran male god George Rooney, which can disturb her small fist heart and wrinkle a pool of heart. "You see, this corn is really handsome..." 11''s eyes are bright, holding the tablet, he Yining comes, "if my mother goes to work in this hospital, I can see the handsome corn occasionally!" He Yining couldn''t laugh or cry. When he came one by one, he pulled a small chair and sat down and took over the tablet However, when she saw the man on the screen, the expression on her face froze in an instant. "Mom, are you handsome?" Blinking one by one, he smiled proudly and said, "mom likes Los Angeles anyway. In fact, you can find a handsome millet to get married. In that way, you can always be in Los Angeles!" He Yining has been staring at the man in the picture without blinking The picture was taken as soon as it was seen. The man was wearing a white coat and holding a stethoscope in his hand. He looked serious, as if he was talking to the patient?! The angle of the photo capture is very good. You can see the perfect side face of the man, as well as the faint, gentle smile from the corners of his mouth In this way, he seems to shine and attract people''s attention at all times. 11. He was still there talking about the benefits of "balabalabala". Finally, he Yining didn''t listen to her at all. He just looked at the picture and left his mouth with some dissatisfaction. "Mom, if you think handsome millet is very good-looking, you might as well marry him..." a serious suggestion, "in this way, handsome millet will become a father and you can see handsome millet every day!" "No!" He Yining seemed to have been poked into some reflex nerve and refused sharply. One by one, the little face wrinkled, "why not?" She murmured her mouth and murmured her dissatisfaction. "Mingming mommy has been staring at handsome corn. She looks obsessed and likes it!" He Yining knew that he had just overreacted. He quickly turned off the screen and put the tablet aside. "When you see a handsome millet, you marry your mother. Of course I can''t..." One by one, the little nose hummed, "isn''t it that I broke my heart for you?" "..." why did Ning take a breath from the corner of his mouth. One by one, but the little adult sighed, "Mom, you see, you are old and old. You can''t always let me worry about you!" "..." he Yining once again had the idea of trying to put he Xinyao back in his stomach and have a new life, "OK, OK, I broke your heart. Then worry about Xiaoda. Do you want to go to bed?" "Sleep!" One by one took off his shoes and went to bed. He skillfully got into the quilt. Seeing why he would rather tuck her in, he asked softly, "Mom, are you really not interested in the handsome millet in Huakang hospital?" He Yining has a headache. One by one, he deflated his little mouth, "Okay, mom, good night!" "Good night!" He Yining smiled and kissed her on the forehead one by one. After turning off the light for her, he went out of the small bedroom. Lying on the bed, the bedside lantern covered with the sound of he Yining made a light out on the bed. My thoughts are gradually pulled away. It''s a long time ago, but this moment is as clear as what happened yesterday "He Yining, I''ve never seen a vicious woman like you..." Li Yunze, a young man, looked at he Yining with scarlet eyes. "Why didn''t you crash?" "Don''t you know? The scourge has left thousands of years..." his face is full of young he Yining, with indifference different from her age. Hearing her say this, the boy''s eyes reddened, "I tell you, I can''t like you in this life... Never!" Chapter 1223 Why Ning''s hand gradually clenched, looked at Li Yunze''s undisguised hatred and sneered, "Li Yunze, you repeat the same sentence from small to large. You''re not tired, I''m tired." Li Yunze obviously didn''t think why Ning would say this to him at this time. Suddenly, he couldn''t say anything angry. "Nothing to say?" He Yining was still indifferent, "no, I can go?" "Roll --" A word of disgust and anger. Everyone in the rich family knows that he Yining fell in love with Li Yunze at the first sight when he was ten years old With the precipitation of years, we thought it was just the love of children, but we gradually found that he Yining''s love for Li Yunze was not just like, but became a deep-rooted obsession. Even, in order to pursue Li Yunze, he Yining has to do everything. Those means can make people unbelievable. And this chase from small to large didn''t stop until... An accident! He Yining painfully closed his eyes and sat on the bed. His legs gradually curled up and buried his face in his knees She is no longer the he Yining who can pursue love recklessly in the rich and powerful family, and she has no capricious capital. Just, why did she have that night when she wanted to give up? Is it God''s pity for her, or is it because she is really too bad to punish her in such a way that she will never let go of Li Yunze?! In the small bedroom, the bedside lamp reflected why Ning''s curled up body, revealing sadness. A love that has not been valued from the beginning is destined to be just her dream. ¡­¡­ Huakang hospital. Li Yunze held a cup of coffee on the roof railing, and his thin short hair fluttered gently in the night wind. Just finished an operation, the other party is a 17-year-old girl. Although she survived, the situation is not optimistic Her life has just begun, but it seems to have ended. Li Yunze sighed quietly, and his thoughts floated far away without reason A stubborn and indifferent figure crossed his mind. He frowned slightly, got up, threw the unfinished coffee into the dustbin and turned around Because suddenly he Yining''s figure crossed his head, Li Yunze''s footsteps under the roof were obviously filled with annoyance under disgust! When Li Yunze just got out of the stairwell, the mobile phone ring came. He took it out and saw that it was Gu Beichen. He picked it up and put it in his ear. "I''ll go to England tomorrow," Gu Beichen said. "Grandma is a little cold. Go back and have a look." "Yes." Li Yunze answered and joked with an evil smile. "Beichen, it''s been more than four years. You go to England from time to time... You have the ability to bring people back then?!" Gu Beichen listened to Li Yunze''s teasing voice, and his cold face was a little dark, "Mo''er is separated from Su Jun now. How do you want me to get back?" Li Yunze rubbed his temples. He thought that four years ago, Beichen planned to divorce Jian Mo first and then propose to her. He didn''t make immortal moves. He wanted to laugh. He felt that he was stabbing his brother in the heart and held back. "The Su family hasn''t heard of two people getting married for four years. If they really love each other, they won''t get married early?" Li Yunze opened the door of the office, "you look like abandoning your husband. It''s really not like the cold-blooded Gu Beichen rumored by the outside world." Gu Beichen was silent. Who made him find it late to fall in love with Mo''er? Who made him not care about Mo''er and let Su Jun get out of the hole? He deserved it! Feeling Gu Beichen''s discomfort, Li Yunze couldn''t bear it. "Beichen, anyway, I think you should make sure first... If Jian Mo didn''t stay with Su Jun, you still have a chance, didn''t you? You''ve been a couple for two years!" Gu Beichen was still silent. After a few seconds, he said, "you remember to see grandma." "Yes." Li Yunze answered, "have a safe trip." After hanging up the phone, Li Yunze changed his white coat, fished out a short windbreaker and walked outside the office wearing The night in Los Angeles is bustling and intoxicating. The car shuttled through the night in Los Angeles. Li Yunze opened the window and let the night wind blow into the car. He slightly screwed off his eyebrows, hung up his Bluetooth headset and dialed his twin sister Li Jinxi Su Junli is a contracted pianist under Li Jinxi dream media. Maybe he can ask Beichen something, so that the indifferent man who is looking forward to thinking about his ex-wife can get out of the sea of suffering. Li Jinxi only married herself years ago. Her relationship with her husband Chen Yu was not weakened by marriage, but like glue. When Li Yunze called, they were doing sports that were not suitable for children on the sofa. On TV, there was also an 18-year-old film, ''hum and yah'' to cheer them up. At first glance, it was completely two people who were studying posture, and finally directly studied it with practical action "The phone rang..." Li Jinxi wanted to get enough of the mobile phone on the tea table. Chen Yu pulled her hand back, "who is so uninteresting at night, no matter!" Li Jinxi rolled his eyes. "It''s Yunze." She has specially set up exclusive calls for her family''s phone rings. Hearing that it was Li Yunze, Chen Yu reluctantly took his mobile phone to Li Jinxi, but his own action didn''t stop at all. Even when Li Jinxi answered the phone, he deliberately made her cry. Li Jinxi was so angry that he pinched Chen Yu fiercely and asked, "what''s the matter?" Li Yunze has a headache. Are people all over the world showing their love to him? Gu beichenxiu''s ex-wife, Li jinxixiu''s private sports?! "Beichen is going to England again. Li Jinxi, just give me a word. Are su Junli and Jian Mo together?" Li Yunze asked. Li Jinxi rolled his eyes. "How do I know? Anyway, I went there to prepare Junli''s concert, and Jane Mo was with me." Li Yunze sighed deeply. Knowing that Li Jinxi was not in the mood to answer the question at the moment, he simply stopped asking, "OK, you keep busy!" He hung up without waiting for Li Jinxi to speak. The car is still shuttling through the night in Los Angeles, but Li Yunze suddenly feels a little lonely Time passes day by day. In the twinkling of an eye, he Yining has returned to Los Angeles for two months, from early spring to late spring. "One by one, hurry up..." he Yining shouted to the one with the schoolbag, and put the books on the medical topics studied in the past two days into the bag. "Mom will be late for work." "All right!" One by one, he carried his small schoolbag and didn''t forget to take an apple and hold it in his hand. He Yining said he was used to the snack goods. After sending them to the kindergarten one by one, he Yining went to the hospital. Just after changing the doctor''s white coat, I heard the call from the emergency bell Chapter 1224 "What''s the matter?" He Yining went out and asked. "Dr. he, there was a series of car accidents on the North Viaduct, and a bus overturned..." the head nurse said hurriedly, "our hospital is closest, and most of the injured patients have been sent to our hospital. Emergency call. At this time, all the doctors who have nothing on hand have gone to the front building clinic." As soon as he Yining listened, he hurried back to the office, took the stethoscope and went out He Yining resisted such things as a car accident because his family collapsed in a car accident. Also because of a car accident, Li Yunze completely disgusted her. He Yining stood in the elevator, gently grasped the stethoscope and took a deep breath. She is now a doctor and in surgery. She has seen a lot of such scenes, hasn''t she? In the outpatient building, it was tragic. Wailing, pain, screaming Mixed with roller rubbing the ground and messy footsteps. "It hurts, ah... It hurts!" "Mom, mom, wake up... Sobbing..." "Doctor, help my husband, please... He can''t die!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Looking at such a scene, why rather the whole person is stupid. It seems that for a moment, she was in that year "Which department are you from?" Suddenly, someone roared in his ear, "what are you doing here? Don''t you hurry to save people?" He Yining reacted suddenly, nodded hurriedly and participated in the first aid. Those things are old things. She has been alone for several years and accompanied her for several years one by one. What can''t she let go of now?! "Uncle, my mother will be fine, won''t she?" A little girl about eight or nine years old gently pulled a man''s shirt sleeve. Her eyes were red, but she stubbornly refused to let her tears flow down, "uncle, right?!" "Uncle won''t let mom have anything... Good!" The man coaxed the little girl with a soft voice, and the rescue action of his men kept on. "Yes!" The little girl seemed to be comforted. She really stood aside and watched the man treat her mother. "Eh? You''re not from our hospital? What are you doing here..." a bald man in his fifties, wearing a white coat of Shuya hospital, pointed to the man who treated the little girl''s mother and asked, "are you a doctor? Do you sew the wound like this?" His shrill voice immediately welcomed the attention of the people around him. Some people are surprised that people who are not doctors are moving the injured. Some people are curious, and naturally others are surprised. "Li''s sewing method?" Suddenly, someone shouted in surprise, "director Zhang, it''s the Li family''s sewing method." Director Zhang looked at the speaker in surprise and at the man who ignored him from beginning to end. Obviously, he was surprised. Li''s sewing method is a great breakthrough in surgery. However, because the technique needs to be skilled to achieve the effect, this is not what ordinary people can do. Therefore, although many people want to use it, they have no way to use it, so it has not been popularized. So that only those who have practiced such sewing will recognize Director Zhang was obviously surprised by the young man who had been stitching his head down. He didn''t see the man until he quickly treated the little girl''s mother''s wound and stitched it up. "Li Shao?!" "It''s just nearby. Come and give me a hand." Li Yunze said, looking at the little girl''s mother, "I need blood transfusion immediately." Director Zhang hurriedly asked someone to deal with it. He was a little embarrassed about his attitude. Li Yunze looked around the hall, wailing one after another, with the smell of death and sadness. However, the doctors from Shuya hospital have arrived, and the situation is not too bad. Suddenly A figure caught his sight. He forgot to react and looked at the woman who carefully treated the wound, gradually losing his mind. I heard she went to Donghai city before? When did she come back?! Li Yunze was slightly distracted. Why should he rather turn around after dealing with a patient and look right at him Since he Yining came back, he never thought about whether he would have a chance to meet Li Yunze. However, she never thought of such a scene. Hehe Another car accident! If the environment is not suitable, why would you rather laugh. Between her and Li Yunze, is it just a constant "car accident" as an introduction?! "Doctor he, help me with the bandage..." There was a sound around me. Why should I rather respond to the sound? I took back my sight indifferently and went to get the bandage. From beginning to end, it seems that Li Yunze is a passer-by in her life. When we meet again, we are just the most familiar stranger. However, no one knows how bloody he Yining is under his indifference every time. "Li Shao, Li Shao?" Director Zhang saw that Li Yunze had been looking at the direction of he Yining, with a strange look on his face, "Li Shao knows doctor he?" "Xuemei." Li Yunze took back his sight and spoke indifferently. Director Zhang remembered that both of them graduated from Medical College of Luoyang University, "Li Shao, that..." "I have something else to do. Let''s go first." Li Yunze interrupted director Zhang''s words, took off his gloves, looked back at he Yining, indifferently turned and left Shuya hospital. Just when his tall figure came to the door, why Ning looked over, and there was a touch of love in the bottom of his eyes from small to large, which had been planted in his bones. He Yining continued to devote himself to the first aid. At the moment she took back, Li Yunze turned back and looked at her position One front, one back, the line of sight passed by! For a whole day, he Yining had almost no time to drink water. Although many people received helpful first aid, in the end, three left the world because of their serious injuries. The hospital is always full of sadness. No one likes to come here He Yining leaned against the wall tired and looked at the front with his eyes out of focus. After resting, his brain kept crossing the scene of seeing Li Yunze in the morning. No matter how many years, that man has always been a wound in her heart. "Yining, what''s the matter?" Song Tianye, a doctor in the same department, came over, "aren''t you feeling well?" He Yining took back his sight and shook his head at the corner of song Tianye''s mouth. "I''ve been busy all day and I''m a little tired." Song Tianye looked at the time. "It''s almost time to hand over the shift. Why don''t you go first?" "Thank you..." he Yining looked at the time and said, "then I''ll change my clothes first." "Well, good." Song Tianye nods and watches how he Yining leaves. "Dr. Song, if you like, go after it boldly!" The head nurse looked at he Yining''s back. "Dr. he is a beautiful and capable woman, but one is less... I think people in other departments are full of strength!" Song Tianye looked at the head nurse and smiled. He didn''t speak, but his eyes crossed a touch of helplessness He knows what others don''t know. With a person who is pursuing Li Yunze in her youth, can she really accommodate other men in her heart? Chapter 1225 Why would you rather rush to the kindergarten after work. When she got to the school gate, luckily she hadn''t finished school yet. She breathed out secretly. Why rather stand among a pile of parents who pick up their children and subconsciously look around while waiting Suddenly, he Yining''s eyes fell on a hurried figure. It''s her?! Why is Ning Ning staring at Jian Mo? When she practiced in Shuya four years ago, she seemed to be pregnant... Now she comes to kindergarten, should the child be born?! Jane Mo felt someone looking at her, instinctively looked at her, saw why Ning smiled at her and came over. "Excuse me, are you..." Jane Mo asked suspiciously. Jane will not remember her, why would rather not feel strange. After all, at that time, Jane Mo''s mother had just died, and she collapsed. Then she found out that she was pregnant... That night should be chaotic for her?! "My name is he Yining! Surgeon of Shuya Hospital..." he Yining explained to himself, thought about it, and said, "you''re pregnant... It''s my first discovery!" Jane Mo suddenly widened her eyes Suddenly think of the chaotic and desperate night in Shuya hospital four years ago, but full of hope. "Since you are here to pick up the child, should it be that the original child was born?" He Yining asked with a smile. Referring to Jian Jie, Jian Mo''s whole body is filled with pride and satisfaction of being a mother, "yes! What about you? Are you also here to pick up your children?" He Yining nodded. "It should be a few months younger than you. It''s a daughter. How about you?" "Boy!" Jane Mo said with a smile. He Yining and Jian Mo chatted while waiting for the children At the right time, a teacher came out with a nervous face. After looking around, he hurried to why Yining, "Mom, uncomfortable..." He Yining was shocked when he heard this. He said to Jian Mo, ''after I go in and have a look'', and hurried in with the teacher Jane Mo originally wanted to see it, but she was afraid of missing her son. In addition, he Yining was a doctor. The children should be able to deal with their discomfort, so she had to give it up at last. He Yining and his teacher entered the classroom together. They saw one by one covering his stomach with his small face, looking pitifully at he Yining, "Mom..." "What''s the matter? What''s wrong?" He Yining squatted down and gently put his hand on 11''s stomach. While checking, he asked, "where''s the pain? Tell your mother." "Mom..." tooted his mouth one by one, "I''m hungry!" "..." he Yining looked at them one by one with a helpless face. The teacher on one side also opened his mouth slightly in surprise. Just now she covered her stomach one by one and kept lying on the table. She asked why she didn''t speak. She just suffered a small face, as if she was particularly uncomfortable. "Mom, I''m sorry. I just didn''t ask clearly, which made you anxious..." the teacher said with some guilt. He Yining stared angrily one by one, got up and shook his head at the teacher, "one by one, I don''t love people when I''m hungry. I didn''t tell the teacher before." After a pause, she looked at one by one, "remember to say to the teacher when you are hungry next time, and apologize to the teacher!" "No, no, I''m not very considerate when the child is hungry, and I''m not careful enough." The teacher said hurriedly, then squatted down and looked at them one by one, smiled and said, "one by one, next time you''re hungry, tell the teacher Oh, there are delicious biscuits in the teacher''s office." "Really!" As soon as they heard what to eat, one by one''s eyes suddenly lit up. Their small appearance was different from the previous powerlessness, which made the teacher very happy. The teacher nodded, smiled and gently pinched the next one''s small face, "don''t scare the teacher again next time, you know?" "Teacher, I''m sorry..." said one by one, hugged the teacher''s neck and kissed him. For such "cheating on eating and drinking" behavior, why would you rather be speechless and choke. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze left after seeing nothing in the hospital. When he got on the bus, he called Gu Beichen, "come out and have a drink?" "No time!" Gu Beichen said directly. "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth, "what are you doing?" "Chase your ex-wife!" Gu Beichen had nothing to hide in front of his brother. "I knew that Mo''er had been Huohuo Huo by a slag man in those years abroad, and I wouldn''t bless him silently here." At the thought of going to England before, Gu Beichen felt very painful when he heard that Mo''er had a child and was still a scum man. Even wanted to give Su Jun a few punches. At the beginning, in order to fulfill Mo''er''s feelings for Su Junli, he endured not to bring her back... How did Su Junli take care of her in the end? Not only did he not take good care of Mo''er, but also he had to take care of his children while going to school. Gu Beichen regretted more and more. He should have kept Mo''er with him... At least, the child may be his! Li Yunze frowned slightly, "what scum man?" "I''ll meet you later and have a chat..." Gu Beichen looked at the out of print architectural design books of Alvar Aalto found in his hand and felt proud. "I''ll finish Mo''er first." With Alvar Aalto''s book in hand, he didn''t believe that Mo''er could resist seeing him! Feeling Gu Beichen''s "rush" strength, Li Yunze, a lonely man, was naturally embarrassed to affect his brother''s pursuit of his wife. After hanging up the phone, Li Yunze suddenly smiled, "it''s not easy to get together once now." Long Xiao is busy chasing warmth in Haibin City, Gu Beichen is busy chasing his ex-wife, and Lin Nannan is in the army. It is rare to come back all year round As for him, it seems that he has nothing to do except surgery and medical research. After starting the car, Li Yunze left the hospital and drove aimlessly on the busy road in Los Angeles I don''t know what happened. When the car stopped in front of a villa, Li Yunze frowned slightly. The locked gate was rusty, and the creeper wrapped the whole fence tightly because no one trimmed it. Is it because I saw he Yining in the morning that I drove here subconsciously? Li Yunze frowned slightly. He looked gloomy about why Ning Pu wrote his "painful" childhood memory. Li Yunze took back his sight and started the car. But just before leaving, he subconsciously looked at the dilapidated villa He family was also a powerful figure in Los Angeles before. The red wine brewed by he family''s winery has even been praised by the wine taster of Lafite winery. But all this, along with a change, has vanished. He Yining, who was once capricious and domineering, has now lost his temper and put down his obsession with him. When Li Yunze thought of this, he suddenly felt a little empty in his heart. The feeling was inexplicable It''s like a thing you''re used to. If you don''t have it suddenly, you''ll become unaccustomed! Chapter 1226 The car crossed the former Hejia villa and disappeared at the end of the night Li Yunze looked at the front with his eyes slightly deep. In his mind, he crossed uncontrollably. In Shuya hospital in the morning, he saw the scene of he Yining. At first, he said that she was not suitable to study medicine. Don''t follow her just because he studied medicine. Her answer to him was: I love you, can you control it! Li Yunze frowned slightly and shook his head. Is he too lonely? Why don''t you stop thinking Li Yunze frowned more and more tightly, pressed the foot of the accelerator, and involuntarily weighed a few points. Time is always flowing inadvertently. No matter why they used to chase after Yunze, or even if they meet now, they just pass by like the most familiar strangers. "Director Zhang, can I not go?" Why rather frown, with embarrassment on his face. Director Zhang was dissatisfied, "how many people can''t go if they want to go with such a good opportunity. Don''t you want to go?" He snorted coldly, "if you didn''t practice in Shuya before, and gave up Huakang and chose Shuya this time, do you think the Dean would call you?" Why would you rather be silent. This kind of medical exchange is what many people want to go. They can not only learn some latest knowledge, but also get some bonuses when they come back. However, one by one is still so small. She went to the academic exchange meeting. What should she do one by one? He Yining thought about how to refuse, and listened to Director Zhang coldly say: "all right, give the patient you have to Dr. Li, and you and Dr. Song will go to an exchange meeting tomorrow." Why should I rather see that director Zhang didn''t give her the chance to refuse at all, and I was a little impatient. I had to sigh secretly and answer. After leaving director Zhang''s office, why would you rather go to the office and sum up what to do. After thinking about it, he Yining called yanmiao, "Yanyan, I''m going to the academic exchange meeting tomorrow..." "Ah, you go too?!" As soon as Yan Miao heard this, he said excitedly, "I have just received the notice from our hospital, and I will go too." "..." he Yining listens. Well, it seems that the things that will be handed over to yanmiao one by one have failed. He Yining called Fang Zihan after chatting with yanmiao for a few words and making an appointment to meet at the academic meeting. As soon as Fang Zihan heard that he was taking care of one by one, he immediately promised, "don''t worry. It''s just that my mother and my father will come to see me tomorrow and will stay with me for a few days. I''m busy. One by one, my parents will take care of me!" He Yining was immediately relieved. "I''m still worried that you''re going to run the news. What can you do one by one... It''s great if your uncle and aunt come over." "My parents also want to come one by one. I heard that they came back one by one, so I''ll come up immediately... I''m too busy to talk to you." Fang Zihan held his mobile phone between his shoulder blades and cheeks and turned over the photos on the SLR with both hands. "You don''t know. You nagged me about marrying a child for more than an hour." "Who made you big, no boyfriend?" why did he love to make complaints about it? "Aunt asked me last time," do you like women? " "Poof!" Fang Zihan couldn''t stand turning his eyes, "my mother is still very fashionable..." He Yining laughed and scolded. After making an appointment to send them to her one by one in the evening, he hung up the phone. Ye Ling naturally looked excited. "I heard that he can open his chest without bleeding... I don''t know if it''s true?!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Because they heard of Li Yunze, they were excited and talked all the way. Song Tianye looks at he Yining. He thought she would fluctuate, but there is no expression on her face, as if she didn''t know Li Yunze. He Yining looked at the passing scenery outside the window and looked indifferent. After so much experience, she has been able to make the wind light and the clouds light Even if it''s only superficial. However, he Yining never thought that this academic exchange meeting, which lasted only one week, would become another fork in the direction of her life and Li Yunze''s life. "Yining, I heard you went to the same school as Li Yunze?" Ye Ling asked. He Yining took back his sight and said calmly, "well, senior, I''ve been a teaching assistant and taught me." "Really?!" Ye Ling was surprised. "I heard that Li Yunze will have an operation when he is eight or nine years old. Is it true?" He Yining heard this and said, "if you dissect a dead fish, it''s estimated to be true!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Everyone laughed as soon as they heard it. Along the way, the people didn''t stop talking about Li Yunze. At first, he Yining didn''t participate. Later, they occasionally talked a few words. It was just a relationship of one school and one department. The destination is a medical research institute invested and built by the Los Angeles government to develop medical undertakings. This academic meeting is semi closed. For a week, everyone will live in the single dormitory built here. When he Yining and others arrived, people from three hospitals had arrived. A total of five public and private hospitals participated in this time. "The people from Huakang hospital are here..." Suddenly, someone shouted. They looked at the gate and saw a business car coming in Everyone opened their eyes wide, hoping to see Li Yunze get off at a glance. Unfortunately, six people came down, but they didn''t see Li Yunze. "Can''t the news be wrong?" Some people complain, obvious loss. He Yining is different from them. She just looks forward to yanmiao. Yan Miao listened to the lost voice around him, turned his eyes to he Yining and said, "I don''t know whether these people are here for academic research or to see Li Yunze..." "Expecting him doesn''t mean expecting academic research?" He Yining asked with a smile. "Also......" yanmiao glanced. "But will he come?" He Yining is also a little curious. Yan Miao looked at he Yining. "Are you asking with personal feelings or academic exchanges?" Chapter 1227 "Poor mouth!" He Yining stared discontentedly. "Didn''t I give you a chance to relax?" Yan Miao turned his eyes. "Tell me, when did you not feel earth shaking when you saw him?" He Yining didn''t disguise too much in front of his best friend, but said with self mockery: "I''ve been used to such an earth shaking mood for more than ten years." Yan Miao was distressed. He Yining just wanted to talk. At the gate, he saw a black Aston Martin driving in with the roar of the engine.. When Li Yunze, wearing a gray blue T-shirt, a pair of jeans and sunglasses, got off the bus, he immediately attracted everyone''s attention Li Yunze completely inherited his mother''s appearance. His face was not so angular, but every combination seemed to be an appropriate work of art, with a man''s charm in it. He Yining looked at Li Yunze and always remembered seeing him for the first time when he was a child. It was a reception. Wearing a three piece black suit, he stood by the swimming pool and talked to Gu Beichen At that time, Gu Beichen was not as indifferent as he is now. He was also a man full of sunshine. Two excellent boys stood there, and she saw Li Yunze at the first sight. He Yining thinks that everything is a coincidence. At that time, the sunlight hit the water in the swimming pool, and the refracted light fell on Li Yunze. He was like the man who came out of the cartoon... With his own halo to attract her. Well, just now, the light reflected from the sun on the roof falls on Li Yunze. It''s beautiful and greedy. There was a voice of joy and excitement around Li Yunze''s arrival. He Yining smiled secretly. A man who is good-looking and has a position that can not be ignored in specializing in academia is destined to be worshipped and loved by women Song Tianye looks at Li Yunze and he Yining. I don''t know if it''s a coincidence. Today, everyone wears professional clothes. Just the two of them wear the most comfortable and casual T-shirts and jeans. Yanmiao also found this feature and fell in love with he Yining. He smiled and joked in a low voice with his mouth basically closed: "Yo Yo, Chek Nao, couples pretend to have a set..." "..." why did Ning zhe look at Li Yunze''s face and blush uncontrollably. No way, who made her love Li Yunze? Being told by yanmiao that a couple''s outfit can make her heart beat ''Dongdong''! Why did Ning zhe stare at yanmiao and then look at Li Yunze Who knows, he just looked at her Although he was wearing sunglasses, he Yining knew he was looking at her! He Yining didn''t know whether it was because yanmiao talked about "lovers'' clothes". He secretly YY some things as before. At the moment when Li Yunze looked at yanmiao, he hurried to look at yanmiao again, completely guilty of being a thief After Li Yunze got off the bus, his sight fell on he Yining at the first sight. Although there are more than 20 people in that group! No matter what prejudice or ideas he has against her, Li Yunze has to admit that he Yining is very beautiful. She has a cold and arrogant temperament raised in a rich family since she was a child. Such temperament can make people on one side become her foil no matter where she stands or what clothes she wears. Li Yunze closed his eyes and came over, just as director Meng of the research institute came out of it. Director Meng smiled and shook hands with Li Yunze. After a few greetings, the two talents went to the place where the people in each hospital were waiting. "Everyone''s dormitories have been arranged. In the morning, I will ask someone to familiarize you with the Research Institute, and in the afternoon, I will conduct the research and allocation of topics..." after director Meng routinely said some words, he asked the assistant to take you to the dormitory building. "Li Shao, there is a single dormitory specially arranged for you. Shall I take you there?" Director Meng spoke. Li Yunze has been looking at he Yining''s back intentionally or unintentionally. Whether it''s the look at each other in Shuya hospital or just now, she has moved away coldly Man is sometimes a strange animal, always pestering his own, he can not like it, but the other party is suddenly indifferent to him, but not! This is the root of human inferiority, subconscious hegemony and selfishness. Everyone will appear more or less, and naturally Li Yunze is no exception. "No," Li Yunze said faintly, "I''m here to participate in the research. I''ll live in the dormitory with you!" "This..." director Meng was a little embarrassed. After all, if Li Yunze participated in this study, it can be said that he will become the dominant position. Li Yunze didn''t say anything more, just raised his steps and followed the people to the dormitory with his long legs. "Hey, Li Shao is here too?" "Won''t you live in a bachelor''s dormitory, too?" "Shouldn''t the Institute give him special arrangements for a big guy like him?" "Whatever, if you live together... Hey, hey!" The ambiguous color of a woman''s face. "Hahaha, yeah, yeah, I heard he''s still single!" "Of course, and I heard that he is very clean and has no gossip girlfriend..." "Isn''t it? It''s impossible for a man like him to have money, face and ability?" "Maybe he likes men!" A man interrupted. "Get out!" All the women immediately brushed a word for him. "But I heard that a woman used to chase him all the time and used a lot of unspeakable actions. Now he has female phobia..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± When women are together, no matter what field they are, what they talk about together is not beauty and skin care, clothes and bags, it is definitely men! Yan Miao circled he Yining''s arm, smiled and whispered, "your feats are about to be spread by everyone..." "There''s no way," why would you rather pick your eyebrows? "Elder sister is a legend we use to worship!" With a puff, yanmiao laughed. Fang Zihan, yanmiao and he Yining have known each other since junior high school. They have been in the same class before the University. They are very clear about why Ning pursues Li Yunze and have assisted! In fact, they all think Yining and Li Yunze are quite matched. They are handsome men and beautiful women, have a good family background, and have a good temperament. Although they are proud, they are kind! Unfortunately, Li Yunze just couldn''t see her. What surprised her most was that Li Yunze couldn''t see Yining''s kindness and always thought she was vicious. It is estimated that if you don''t like a person, you don''t like it anyway. Can your shortcomings be magnified countless times?! The assistant director assigned dormitories to each hospital. Finally, the empty rooms on the first floor were allocated, and he Yining, the only one, had not been allocated. "Doctor he, there is no room on the third floor. Why don''t you go to the fifth floor?" Asked the assistant. Why rather doesn''t matter, "good!" "Shall I trade with you?" Song Tianye said, "you and yanmiao can take care of each other on the same floor." "No, listen to the arrangement!" He Yining smiles. She doesn''t want to be special, but in a week, besides, after studying and writing reports every day, she doesn''t have time in the dormitory except sleeping. Song Tianye sees why it doesn''t matter, so he doesn''t say anything more. At the right time, someone suddenly said, "it seems that Li Shao... There is no distribution!" Chapter 1228 A word stirred thousands of waves. Everyone looked at Li Yunze who answered the phone at the end of the corridor and had an idea in his heart He Yining was assigned to the fifth floor. It wasn''t Li Yunze. Because there was no room on the third floor, he could only go to the fifth floor? In this case, if you go up and down, why would you rather be with Li Yunze. No wonder song Tianye just wants to change floors with he Yining. She doesn''t want to. I''m afraid she found out that Li Yunze hasn''t assigned a room yet? "I''m sure..." Yan Miao said to he Yining with a small smile. "Everyone must be secretly scolding you for being a scheming bitch at the moment!" Yanmiao sometimes really doesn''t understand whether he Yining is born with black constitution. It''s clear that many things that don''t exist can be thrown on her in the end "I''m a scheming bitch!" He Yining was indifferent. Yanmiao glanced at her obliquely, and a cheap smile hung around her mouth, "ha ha, I like your appearance of ''you can''t stand me and can''t kill me''... Domineering side leakage!" Someone''s eyes have begun to look unkindly at he Yining. She still looks indifferent and ignores them all. After being reminded, the assistant remembered that Li Yunze had no arrangement. The assistant looked at the look of a group of women who wanted to fall down Li Yunze immediately and rolled her eyes secretly. Is this for academic research or chasing men?! "OK, I''ll go and have a look..." Li Yunze said and hung up the phone. Turn around and come over. "Li Shao, there is no room on this floor. Are you going to live on the fifth floor or..." the assistant said tactfully, "well, doctor he is also arranged on the fifth floor this time." If Li Yunze doesn''t want to live on the same floor as the female doctor, he can live in the single suite of teaching staff. "Yes." Li Yunze just answered faintly, "I''ll go to the drug research room first and give me the key back." The words fell, Li Yunze didn''t see why he Ning glanced, turned and went downstairs again. Seeing Li Yunze''s indifference to he Yining without any response, all the dreamy women said: they are happy. After watching Li Yunze go downstairs, people with thoughts looked at he Yining one after another. Unfortunately, she had a cold indifference from beginning to end, as if nothing could cause her waves. The people took the key, and the assistant handed Li Yunze''s key to he Yining. "Later, I''m going to buy things in the city. I''m afraid I won''t come back. Doctor he will turn back and give the key to Li Shao!" "Good!" Why would you rather take it indifferently. Naturally, her convenient contact with Li Yunze ushered in the envy, jealousy and hatred of everyone. The assistant looked at the time, "we will gather in the front building in half an hour, and then a special person will take you to get familiar with the environment first..." After they answered, they went back to their rooms to tidy up. Half an hour later, the crowd gathered and a special person was responsible for taking them familiar with the Institute. It was noon. After a simple meal in the canteen, everyone went back to the dormitory for lunch break. After Li Yunze left the dormitory building, the people didn''t see her again. He Yining looked at the next room and wondered what to do if Li Yunze came back later and couldn''t get into the house? After thinking about it, she entered the house, wrote a post it note, pasted it on the door and told Li Yunze that the key was on her side. When she came back, she could knock on the door and ask for it When Li Yunze came back, it was already half an hour after the lunch break. He looked at the post it note on the door, and the familiar font filled the sight of his whole youth. "Brother Ze, remember to look outside the window in an hour. You can''t forget it in an hour!" "Ozawa, when the strawberries are washed, remember to eat them. I really want to plant one of my strawberries on you, ha ha!" "Little kiss, why do you like you so much?" "Yo, I heard you were bullied by Gu Beichen today? It''s all right. You''ll marry me later. We''ll bully you two on one..." "Kiss baby, you''re so handsome today... But your hand needs surgery. You should protect it! Meimoda!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± In his books, on the door of his dormitory, in the workshop where he studies, in the drawer of his home He Yining has the ability to go from heaven to earth. He can fill all kinds of notes she wrote in places he couldn''t think of. He was very bored at that time, and often threw it into the trash can without looking. Even threw it in front of her. At that time, Beichen always said that he was too cold and shouldn''t treat girls like that But he is really too upset, why should he Ning. But later, when there was no he Yining in his life, he was relaxed, but he also lacked something. Li Yunze looked at the note in his hand for a while, and a shallow smile appeared on one side of his mouth, showing a evil charm. He turned and walked to the stairwell without knocking on the door of he Yining to disturb her lunch break. And the note in his hand was put into his pocket without knowing it In the afternoon, we entered the academic research. We were all young talents selected by various hospitals. After converging our minds, we all invested in the research. The afternoon passed quickly, and the people became familiar with each other in the communication. "In the evening, the Institute prepared a welcome meal for you. You can remember your mood when you first entered the University..." the people of the Institute laughed and joked. Suddenly, everyone laughed and ridiculed and went to the canteen together. "This steamed egg is delicious..." Ye Ling sighed. "Yes, it''s smooth, tender and fresh!" Someone communicated, "why can''t I make steamed eggs so fresh?" "You''re not a chef..." then someone make complaints about it. Immediately, it caused everyone to laugh. "Well," yanmiao took a bite, "it''s really delicious... Yining, try it. Don''t you like steamed eggs best?" He Yining ate it. It was really delicious. It was better than sister-in-law Feng. Sister-in-law Feng used to be the housekeeper of he family, because she prefers to eat steamed eggs and cook them for her in a different way. She can''t get tired of eating them anyway. Because it''s delicious, he Yining will finish it soon. Song Tianye put his bowl in front of he Yining and said with a smile, "I remember that there were steamed eggs in the school canteen one day. You basically skipped class by the back door in your last class." "You remember..." he Yining was not polite. He took song Tianye''s and ate it. But only halfway through the meal, he Yining suddenly felt a little stuffy. Then, her face began to turn red and her breathing began to be blocked. Everyone ate happily and didn''t notice. Why should Ning hold the spoon sadly? Gradually, he has less air in and more air out. "Yining?" Song Tianye finds something wrong with he Yining around him. "Is there something wrong?" He Yining''s body began to weaken, and his eyes gradually became red. Then his sight began to blur "Yining?!" Yan Miao stared and was stunned when he Yining was in such a state. Before he could speak again, he saw that he Yining had turned back. Song Tianye reflexively wants to pull, but he just moves. He only feels that Yu Guang has a flash. Why Ning has fallen into Li Yunze''s arms Chapter 1229 Everyone is eating happily. The sudden situation makes everyone unresponsive for a while. When he Yining fell into Li Yunze''s arms, they were even more surprised. Even the people from the Institute who came with Li Yunze didn''t understand what happened? Song Tianye''s hand is still frozen in the air. He subconsciously looks at Li Yunze "What''s going on?" Li Yunze asked in a deep voice. "I don''t know," Yan Miao said hurriedly, "Yining just ate steamed eggs well..." Li Yunze frowned. He knew why he liked steamed eggs best. He held he Yining in one hand, took the spoon she had eaten in the other hand, and dug a steamed egg into his mouth. He didn''t mind that she had used it. Maybe in this case, as a doctor, he doesn''t have time to mind. However, in the eyes of some thoughtful people, all kinds of thoughts in their hearts After all, why did you put the spoon into your mouth and pull it out. After Li Yunze tasted the taste, his face suddenly changed, "why Yining, do you want your life for a steamed egg?" Gnashing his teeth, Li Yunze fell down with anger. He Yining, who was gradually unconscious, picked him up and left the canteen in a hurry "What''s going on?!" The cook heard that something had happened here and hurried out. "How do you make steamed eggs?" Yan Miao asked eagerly, "do you want human life?" The cook was stunned at first and generally understood that there was something wrong with the steamed egg made by himself. He looked blankly, "it''s steamed eggs..." after a pause, he suddenly remembered something and said, "Oh, I put a little crab meat chopped with sea crab pliers in order to freshen it." Yan Miao was so angry that he stamped his feet, "what kind of crab meat do you put in a steamed egg?" With that, she hid her feet angrily and went after Li Yunze Why do you prefer to have seafood allergy? There are not many sea crab meat in steamed eggs. In addition, it is covered by the taste of eggs. You can''t find it at all Besides, who would have thought there would be so much material in steamed eggs?! "What''s going on?" The cook looked bitter and forced, "I''ve been doing this all the time. Don''t everyone have nothing to eat? I won''t really kill people?!" "It seems that he Yining is allergic to seafood..." The chef was stunned when he came here "Hey, do Li Shao and he Yining know each other?" Someone suddenly asked. "No?!" "I can''t see that two people know each other!" "I don''t know. I''m just in such a hurry," someone said hesitantly. "Moreover, I know why Ning''s name..." "Yes, and Li Shao seems to know that he Yining is allergic to seafood!" Song Tianye glanced at the woman who was talking about it and said nothing. He turned around to see what was going on. As soon as Shuya''s people left, the rest were embarrassed to eat. They all went to see why Yining. ¡­¡­ This is the medical research institute. There is no shortage of medical equipment and drugs. Li Yunze quickly injected he Yining with medicine. Considering the size of the injection room and the need for circulating air breathing, the people who just came just waited outside Fortunately, the discovery was timely and the injection of drugs was not delayed. Everyone was not so worried except he Yining and yanmiao in the same hospital. In the ward, director Meng looked at Li Yunze who pushed a newly prepared medicine into the drip tube and secretly thought about his relationship with he Yining. Director Meng''s mobile phone made a sound in time. He quickly took it out and picked it up. "There''s something going on here at the Institute... Well, I know. I''ll go back now... OK!" Director Meng hung up and heard Li Yunze say, "director Meng, go back first. I''ll watch here first." "Today, the child''s teacher will come to make a home visit..." director Meng explained with some embarrassment, "then I''ll go first. If there''s anything, don''t call me." "Good!" Li Yunze answered. Director Meng left the injection room and said to the people waiting outside, "let''s go to dinner first. I''m afraid Dr. he won''t wake up until later." The crowd listened and looked at each other, but they were embarrassed to go. "You go and eat first. I''ll watch here..." yanmiao said. "I''ll stay, too. Yining and I are classmates in the same department. We have to watch her wake up before we can rest assured." Song Tianye said, "let''s go to dinner first. Don''t worry. It''s the same to come back later." When he said so, the people didn''t stay any longer and left one after another Song Tianye and Miao are wondering if they want to go in. Both know he Yining''s feelings for Li Yunze. However, yanmiao is a best friend, and song Tianye has thoughts on he Yining. "Wait and see..." Song Tianye sighed. Whether Yining is sleeping or not, I''m afraid she can be alone with Li Yunze. She knows later that she is also happy. Yan Miao nodded. ¡­¡­ The injection room was quiet. Li Yunze looked at why Yining and his pale face. Gradually, he lost his mind. After the injection, he Yining woke up in about half an hour. In the blurred line of sight is the light reflected by the incandescent lamp, which is slightly dazzling. Why rather close your eyes and slowly open them She subconsciously glanced and looked at Li Yunze''s indifferent eyes. Before that coma, she seemed to hear his angry voice Why Ning''s mouth slowly filled with a smile, which was a cunning smile. Because that kind of Li Yunze reminds her of the time before, when he was made anxious by her, he would yell at her in such a hurry. She sometimes feels that her attribute is "cheap". Seeing Li Yunze scolding her and yelling at her, she can be happy all day. He Yining weakly fanned his eyes, and the cunning smile at the corners of his mouth became more and more obvious. Such cunning fell into Li Yunze''s eyes and gradually became dangerous. "He Yining!" Li Yunze suddenly clenched his teeth and shouted. He Yining''s thoughts suddenly returned to reality from her memory. She looked at Li Yunze''s light face and became cloudy, as if she could feel why he was angry. No way, she really knows him Why would you rather not speak, but the cunning of the corners of your mouth gradually turned into a sneer. "Did you do it on purpose again?" Li Yunze asked, gritting his teeth. Just now, Li Yunze remembered the sly smile on her face too deeply. Because it''s not the first time for her to be in front of him "What on purpose?" He Yining knows why. "There is seafood in the steamed egg. You can''t eat it?" Li Yunze sneered, "just like in those days, it''s your intention, isn''t it?" He Yining sneered, "I said, won''t you believe it?" Chapter 1230 "Sure enough..." Li Yunze sneered and said sarcastically, "he Yining, you are still so naive after so many years!" He Yining is very sad in her heart. Li Yunze has always felt that she has a serious mind. Last time I didn''t know why he thought she was deliberately allergic to food in front of him. Anyway, he was worried, and then she was happy. Then she was in tragedy. Later, he Yining thought that it was estimated that it was because of her sentence, "I knew you would care about me if you were allergic to food, so I am allergic to food in front of you every day", which made Li Yunze think it was her intention. And just now she thought of the original thing and probably didn''t control her mood, so Li Yunze thought like that again. But it doesn''t matter. Anyway, they now have a bridge and a road, and there''s nothing to tangle with. Looking at why Yining''s look of ''I''m childish'', Li Yunze gnashed his teeth. "Why Yining, in order to attract my attention, since you''re not afraid of food allergy, I think you''ll die directly next time. I''m not sure I can feel heartache!" I don''t know why, Li Yunze couldn''t control his emotions at all. After biting his teeth and roaring, he didn''t even look at why he Ning, turned and left the injection room. There were a group of people who had eaten and came back outside, and the voice of Li Yunze just now was clearly heard outside Someone subconsciously gave way to Li Yunze when he came out. He looked straight and left with anger. Yanmiao frowns and looks at Song Tianye. They first turn around and enter the injection room. Then, Ye Ling and Shen Mingzhang frowned and followed in. People in other hospitals looked at each other. "After a long time, why should I really know Li Yunze?" Someone whispered. "It seems that there is something unclear between the two people?!" "However, he Yining is really resourceful..." "Yes, I''m allergic to seafood. Don''t you know? After eating a bowl of steamed eggs, why would I rather pull the corners of my mouth without talking. In fact, they don''t need to comfort her. She really doesn''t care. In the past, she was scolded by him for chasing Li Yunze, and then despised by many people. She was used to it. As yanmiao told them, they liked her look of ''you don''t like me, and you can''t kill me''. "Would you like some water?" Song Tianye asked. He Yining nodded. Song Tianye goes to pour hot water and feeds him with he Yining. When they were in college, they were all in the same class. Song Tianye had a good impression of he Yining, but she also knew that she had only one Li Yunze in her heart. It''s very sad for song Tianye to see the end of such feelings before they start. However, smart people know how to place themselves. He Yining was all right. Most of the people who quarreled outside left with symbolic greetings. The rest are not symbolic, they are all men. Yanmiao finally asked everyone to have a rest. After all, the academic topic of cardiothoracic surgery will be carried out the next day. For people who are not cardiothoracic and pulmonary department, everyone needs to consolidate their knowledge in advance. "Shall I stay with you?" Song Tianye opens his mouth. "No, I''ll just hang up the water later..." after yanmiao drove everyone away, he looked at he Yining helplessly. "How does Li Yunze think you made it yourself?" "No way, that''s my image in his mind!" He Yining, it doesn''t matter if some broken cans are broken. "...." Yan Miao was angry and distressed. He could not help but turn around and swallow it back when he finally got to his mouth. Yining couldn''t let go of Li Yunze. Now there are one by one. Don''t want to put it down in this life Yan Miao sighed deeply, looked at he Yining and said, "tomorrow''s heart and lungs must be Li Yunze as the main knife." The doctors have academic experience in this operation, because they are all real patients. These patients are poor and can''t afford the operation fee. They can finish the operation for free while applying for academic research. Since it is a real person, there is no room for mistakes. If there is a medical accident, the responsibility is equal to that in the hospital "Yes." Why should Ning answer the voice faintly. Seeing that he Yining didn''t really want to continue this topic, yanmiao didn''t continue this topic anymore, but forked off. Yining is a surgeon and yanmiao is extraneural. Tomorrow is not their field. In fact, they are just observing. When he Yining finished hanging up, yanmiao checked her again and found that there was no serious problem. The two talents left the injection room and walked to the dormitory. "Would you like something to eat first?" "No appetite." Why would you rather shake your head. Yan Miao sighed and nodded without saying more. "I''ll just go up by myself. Why don''t you go back to the dormitory?" After arriving at the third floor, he Yining said. "You have no problem?" Yanmiao is not at ease. He Yining cried and laughed, "is there a problem? Haven''t you just checked it?" She tilted her eyes. "All right, I''ll go up." "Yes." Yan Miao answered and looked at why Ning went upstairs before turning to her dormitory. Why Ning dragged his still weak body to the fifth floor, hung his head and walked towards his dormitory When I got there, I felt as if there was something in the air. Subconsciously, why would you rather lift your eyes and see Li Yunze''s hands in his jeans pocket, leaning against the wall lazily and casually and looking at her. He Yining didn''t know whether it was a brain short circuit, so he sneered and said, "why, I''m leaving. Don''t worry about me. Wait for me here?" Chapter 1231 Li Yunze immediately sneered and said sarcastically, "I''m waiting for the key!" "..." he Yining grinned secretly. Originally, she deliberately wanted to disgust Li Yunze. Unexpectedly, she seemed to have a fly in her mouth and disgusted herself. However, in the face of Li Yunze''s sarcasm, why should we rather really practice the body of King Kong. Even if the heart is hard to die, the face can be light. She took out the key from her pocket and threw it to Li Yunze coldly. Watching him take it, she turned coldly and said something in her heart. Li Yunze went to the next door to open the door, but after the key was put in, he couldn''t twist it. He frowned slightly and tried again, but he still couldn''t move. Li Yunze sighed darkly, gritted his teeth, pulled out the key and looked at he Yining. "He Yining, why do you give me the key to your room?" He sneered, "why, do you just want a man to enter your room?" "..." he Yining first frowned, then touched his pocket, took out another key, looked at the room number posted on it and grinned secretly. But she got used to being stubborn in front of Li Yunze and said coldly, "yes, I just want a man to enter my room. If you have the ability, you can come in?" "..." Li Yunze can really be angry with him. With a calm face, he walked to he Yining, pulled the key in her hand with anger, patted the previous key in her hand, turned and opened the door The door slammed with an undisguised anger. Why should Ning sneer, "if you have the ability to live in a suite directly? Do you have to nest in the bachelor dormitory or next door to me? I don''t know. I thought you had to live here because you were infatuated with me!" Tucao make complaints about why he opened his own door and entered the room. She first called Fang Zihan and talked to him one by one. After Fang Zihan asked about he Yining''s health, she gossip. "I hear Yan Yan say that Li Yunze has gone this time?" Fang Zihan looked and lay down on the tea table, playing LEGO with his parents one by one, went to the balcony, nestled in the hanging chair and continued, "do you still live next door?" "Well," he Yining lay on the bed and looked at the ceiling powerlessly, "I guess I was born with his magnetic field, so even if I have close access to water and buildings, I won''t get a month." Fang Zihan was make complaints about his own attitude so that he laughed. "You tell me, you are not easy to get food allergy. Why can''t you install it delicate and touching?" "I''m not Qu Weiwei..." he Yining said, suddenly paused, and involuntarily mocked himself. In her life, if Li Yunze is a cinnabar mole in her heart, Qu Weiwei is a fishbone in her throat. One is unable to dig out, the other is not easy to pull out, but the memory is "profound". Sometimes I think of it, it is still like a lump in my throat. Fang Zihan was also silent. "Why are you remembering those bad debts?" She changed the topic, "Li Yunze is stingy to you all day. How happy you are now with his most ''precious'' one by one." "That''s true..." he Yining also laughed. Without Li Yunze and having his child, she will live up to her years of hard work. After talking for a while, why would you rather hang up the phone. ¡­¡­ After taking a bath, Li Yunze stood in front of the window in a silk nightgown The suburb of the Institute is far away from the hustle and bustle of the city, and it is particularly quiet at night. However, such tranquility will soon make people fall into some kind of memory. Xu is from small to large. His relationship with he Yining is a pursuit and a disgust. So that they haven''t seen each other for several years. When they meet again, this relationship can be "maintained". Li Yunze suddenly became a little agitated At that time, I went to the canteen to eat with the people of the Research Institute. When I went in, I saw why Yining''s body was bent at a glance. Then I saw her paralyzed The brain didn''t think at all, so it walked forward with a vigorous step. Fortunately, it was close. At the moment she fell down, he just protected her What was your mood? Li Yunze frowned slightly, as if this person occupied too much in life. Even if he hated it, he was used to being. Take back your sight and hang your eyes Li Yunze secretly mocked himself. Is he too lonely? Everyone was right in pairs, so that he even had some bad feelings about he Yining. Li Yunze turned around, went to the desk, turned on the lamp, took the patient who was going to have surgery tomorrow, and began to look at the previous medical data It is academic research and formal surgery. Although he has no compassionate character and a flood of compassion... However, in the operation under his hand, he must control the failure rate to the lowest point. Time, little by little Doctors from all hospitals participating in tomorrow''s operation and observation are looking at the data and preparing. The next day, the weather in Los Angeles was a little overcast. Such weather is always not as pleasant as sunny. President Meng looked at the doctors who were eager to enter the operating room with Li Yunze and calmly announced, "regardless of the field, the doctors who decided to enter the operating room with Li Shao today by lot... The rest are in the observation room." Such randomness makes everyone pray for their good luck except one person "Don''t smoke me..." Yan Miao whispered a prayer. "I don''t want to be scolded by him when I''m in the hospital. When I come here, I''ll be scolded by him." After her internship, she chose neurosurgery, and Li Yunze''s most powerful ones were Shenwai and cardiothoracic lung. Yanmiao is occasionally scheduled to operate with Li Yunze. Even if she is on his side, she doesn''t even have the qualification of the second deputy. At most, the third Deputy can be shocked by his powerful aura during the operation every time, so that she will be scolded if she makes mistakes occasionally. He Yining looked at yanmiao sympathetically, "I love you..." he paused, "but if you think about the situation when he and I enter the operating room, you will be balanced." Sure enough As soon as yanmiao heard what he Yining said, he immediately ''poof'' and smiled in a low voice. "Seriously, if I didn''t know why you chose the medical department, I would think you were for him..." yanmiao said. Why rather inhaled and took a long sigh of relief, pulling the corners of his mouth with self mockery. She has done two serious things in her life. One is to pursue Li Yunze and the other is to be a doctor. It''s just that some things lovers really can''t control. You can''t get rewards if you work hard. Thinking, everyone has begun to draw lots. Yanmiao took two directly and gave he Yining one. Everyone opened it and pulled it into the operating room. Everyone was excited and was about to cry. Those who didn''t get it felt sorry one after another. "Hoo..." yanmiao looked at the ''observation room'' in his hand. After relaxing his breath, he looked at he Yining and asked, "what are you?" Chapter 1232 He Yining turned the paper to yanmiao and sighed secretly. When Yan Miao saw the "operating room" written above, he joked with a smile: "you are doomed... Yining, my spirit is with you. You must pray not to be depressed in the observation room. After all, when observing, we found that Li Yunze''s hand speed is really too fast. If it is not for long-term cooperation, it is difficult to keep up with his rhythm. But he Yining didn''t panic, as if she knew when Li Yunze would do anything. Yan Miao sighed and looked at he Yining''s figure, full of heartache. An operation took nearly three hours to complete "He Yining smiled and said nothing. Several people chatted happily. Suddenly, there was something wrong with the surrounding atmosphere. Ye Ling "thank you!" Li Yunze sat down in Shen Mingzhang''s position. Why Ning frowned slightly, and Yu Guang caught a glimpse of everyone in the canteen. "Well, I''ll go to another table..." Ye Ling fled the second. Song Tianye and yanmiao look at each other and don''t move. One is that they understand their relationship. The other is that they are worried that they are gone, leaving Li Yunze and he Yining together. Someone will target him later. It''s just that the atmosphere of the four people is obviously a little treacherous at the moment. "You really surprised me today." Li Yunze looked at he Yining with a look in his sight. Although he hated he Yining, she really impressed him from the operation just now. Why rather drink a mouthful of soup and say, "thank you!" Li Yunze saw why he Ning didn''t have much food in front of him. There was a difference in the bottom of his eyes, but it was only fleeting. "You have a strong ability in heart, chest and lung," Li Yunze said, looking at he Yining''s face again. "I can see that you should pay a lot in this field. Why do you choose to stay in surgery?" Why should Ning feel depressed all of a sudden? He doesn''t care which department she wants to be in?! She put down the spoon, raised her eyes, looked at Li Yunze coldly and asked, "have you ever filled your youth?" Chapter 1233 Li Yunze frowned and was obviously dissatisfied with why Yining''s answer was not what he asked. Most importantly, when he Yining asked this question, Li Yunze''s first reaction was His youth is filled with an annoying man! Although it is an indisputable fact, he doesn''t want to admit it! The atmosphere around Li Yunze and he Yining''s "look at each other" became more and more strange and even depressed. Yanmiao and song Tianye look at each other again. Looking at the two people at any time, they seem to be ready to enter the battle state. They just feel their scalp numb. Yan Miao looked at he Yining and wanted to remind her to calm down. In fact, after the collapse of the he family, Yining''s temper converged a lot, and even the wind was light and the clouds were light. However, every time she encounters Li Yunze''s problem, she can lose her mind "Li Yunze, my youth is full of you..." why Ning sneered, as if that memory was unbearable for her, although it was true. However, some love, although painful, is also a pursuit of happiness for the parties Pain, and happy! "My familiarity with the progress of your operation doesn''t mean I like cardiothoracic lung." Her voice became colder and colder. "I just watched all your operation videos. It can be said that I am familiar with your operation progress and habits, that''s all!" After that, she didn''t know whether she was angry with herself or felt that Li Yunze deliberately came to make her unhappy and depressed. After staring at him, she got up and walked outside the canteen. Everyone''s eyes looked at he Yining''s back and guessed what had happened one by one. Although he Yining was angry, he didn''t speak loudly in his subconscious mind. Even at the next table, in fact, I heard it intermittently, not very true. "Li Shao, I think..." Yan Miao sneered. "Everyone''s academic research is academic research. There''s no need to guess what''s not, right?" She put down her chopsticks. "I have no appetite to eat with you." Yanmiao sneered and got up and left. Song Tianye frowned slightly, sighed secretly, and said slowly, "since you don''t like it, don''t disturb her..." he looked at Li Yunze, "if you can''t provoke you, Yining really insisted very hard. Why do you have to squeeze into her life when she wants to stay away from you?" After hearing this, Li Yunze glanced at Song Tianye and said coldly, "in what capacity did you tell me this?" "Is it enough for me to chase Yining?" Song Tianye said coldly and took his plate to another table. The atmosphere of the whole canteen became treacherous, making eye contact one by one. Finally, they felt depressed, ate in a hurry, and left. ¡­¡­ When yanmiao passed the canteen in the Research Institute, he bought two boxes of instant noodles and went to he Yining dormitory. "Tell me about you. Why are you competing with yourself?" Yan Miao glanced at he Yining, who was sitting by the bed. "I said at the beginning that you are looking for sin and suffering all your life." "Hey, I''m not happy at the moment. Do you comfort people like this?" He Yining asked angrily. Yan Miao rolled over his eyes. "You can''t wake up. Do you care about comfort?" She handed the instant noodles to he Yining. "If you want me to say, you should tell Li Yunze that he slept with you at the medical school party... Disgusting him!" "..." why would Ning really want to smash the instant noodles in his hand on yanmiao? "Yanmiao, how disgusting am I that I can''t sleep?" He just laughed and said something. "You''re not disgusting, not disgusting..." Yan Miao couldn''t speak clearly with a smile. "However, Li Yunze must feel disgusted when he knows you''re sleeping! Ha ha..." "..." he Yining looked up and asked the sky without words. Even if she falls in love with someone she can''t afford, how can she make a bad friend like yanmiao?! ¡­¡­ Time flies through surgery, research and writing reports. After the episode of the first operation, everyone is as busy as the top every day. They almost don''t get enough sleep. Naturally, they don''t have the relaxed and gossip mood when they just came in. In the twinkling of an eye, a week of academic research flies For those who participated this time, because Li Yunze joined, although they were under great pressure, they had to admit that they also learned more useful things. "Tomorrow everyone will go back to their own hospital," said Meng with a smile. "Tonight, the canteen has prepared Happy Meals and some drinks. Everyone is relaxed." Paused, "as for their respective reports, I will also revise the files and return to their respective hospitals." "Listen to the comments, Dean Meng!" Someone said brazenly, "it''s about our salary rise!" As soon as he spoke, all the people in the room began to laugh and joke. Why would you rather sit there and don''t know what''s written? He looks very serious and doesn''t fit in with the atmosphere in the whole conference room. Li Yunze sat there lazily with a pen in his hand, a pair of eyes, indifferent on the surface, but thoughtful in the depths. After another "quarrel" in the canteen that day, the two met like strangers. No one looked at each other and didn''t even say one of the most common greetings. Apart from the necessary contacts in academic research, there is nothing else. Suddenly Li Yunze''s vision gradually deepened. He looked at why Ning''s mouth was full of happy laughter. Uncontrollably, he frowned. What is she writing? Why are you so happy? Such a smile, as if he had never seen it on he Yining''s face after he''s fallen That is a comfortable, relaxed and beautiful smile. "Well, let''s go to the canteen..." Dean Meng urged after joking with everyone for a while. The crowd got up one after another with a sound of joy. Li Yunze still maintained such a lazy posture, as if playing with a pen. In fact, if his line of sight had been inadvertently looking at why he Ning. "Li Shao, let''s go together..." Dean Meng came over, "there is no operation arrangement in your hospital tomorrow?" "No!" Li Yunze took back his sight and spoke faintly. When Meng heard this, he laughed happily, "then we must have two drinks tonight." "Good!" Li Yunze answered, but he didn''t mean to get up. President Meng is very tolerant of Li Yunze''s somewhat cold and arrogant temper. Let alone the status of the Li family in the medical community, it is Li Yunze himself, which also determines the status of the medical community. Seeing that Li Yunze didn''t plan to get up, Dean Meng just wanted to invite him again, he stood up slowly. At the right time, Yan Miao circled he Yining''s arm and crossed Li Yunze''s front Chapter 1234 "How many love letters have you written?" In front, there was a faint voice of Yan Miao. Li Yunze and Meng Yuanchang walked together, but they were not far apart Although yanmiao''s words were not completely heard, Li Yunze still heard the word "love letter". No wonder you just smiled so brightly. It turned out that you wrote love letters to other men Li Yunze sneered coldly and disdained the bottom of his eyes. He Yining, aren''t you going to catch up with men as a whole?! "I haven''t counted it. Anyway, I want to write it all the time..." he Yining smiled at the thought of writing love letters one by one. "When she looks back, will she be moved when she sees the love letter I wrote to her?" These love letters were all given to her when she was an adult. There are what she wants to say in each period, as well as her father, Li Yunze, who occasionally talks about her feelings for one. Although her emotional path is not smooth, she hopes to be smooth in the future. "Yes!" Yanmiao picks up her eyebrows and speeds up her pace with he Yining, catching up with song Tianye. Several people giggled and didn''t know what to say. The smile on he Yining''s face was even more gorgeous and fascinating. However, when she turned her head to look at someone else, Yu Guang caught a glimpse of Li Yunze, about four or five meters away from them, and subconsciously turned to look at him But the smile stopped immediately. Li Yunze still looked indifferent, as if he had no feeling about why he Ning was like this. Why Ning coldly pulled back his sight and laughed again after what yanmiao said Li Yunze hums coldly, feeling that she can''t smile in front of him now? A group of people and the person in charge of them from the research institute went to the canteen this time. The aunt of the canteen had already put the table together and everyone sat around. I don''t know if it''s a coincidence, or after a week of academic research, we found that Li Yunze can only look from a distance and can''t blaspheme at a close distance. In order to ensure safety, we all kept a certain distance from him intentionally or unintentionally. Finally, the remaining positions are either between director Meng and Li Yunze and he Yining, or the two of them work together. Meng Suo is good at public and private affairs. Naturally, it is impossible to sit among them. Others don''t feel embarrassed. He still feels it. In the end, he can still feel the unspeakable things between Li Yunze and he Yining. "Yining, shall we change positions?" Song Tianye gets up. "Good!" He Yining didn''t say why this time. He changed positions with song Tianye. "Yining, just move..." Yanmiao moves to song Tianye''s position and asks why Yining should move. In this way, Yining sits next to song Tianye. Even if you can''t give him medicine He Yining didn''t have a crooked mind. When he saw yanmiao blinking with her cunningly, he knew what the woman was thinking. Li Yunze looked indifferent and lazy. Except in the operating room, he didn''t seem to be very serious at any time. The crowd looked at he Yining with thought, and then crossed song Tianye and looked at Li Yunze. I always feel as if... There are some gossip waiting for everyone to explore. After the intense academic research, everyone relaxed. In addition, they were basically similar in age. Naturally, they drank and ate, and soon played "No, no, I have to lie under the table when I go through the customs..." Shen Mingzhang looked at a circle of people and suggested, "I said, everyone came out of school. Get some classic games to play!" "What classic game?" "I can''t remember what my campus looks like..." "Yes, yes, Shen Mingzhang, which classic game are you talking about?" "I''ll go. I have to be honest and take a big risk!" "..." the corners of their mouths twitched, and they felt that it was a little childish for everyone to play that now. However, although we feel childish, we have no objection to what it is. "Play or not?" Shen Mingzhang asked, "anyway, everyone will go back to rest tomorrow and go to work only after that." "Just play!" He Ming raised his eyebrows. "When Huakang got together, he always played this game!" Yan Miao smiled because he did. "I''ll tell you," said yanmiao to he Yining, "Huakang plays this. He basically doesn''t play truth, but plays big adventure... Sometimes he plays Hi, it''s... Tut tut tut!" Why Ning frowned slightly? If such a game had been put in the past, she would have played better than anyone else, but now Thinking, the rules of the game have been set. If you choose a big adventure with a glass of wine to strengthen your courage, if you choose a truth, you can ask one more derivative question. You can''t choose between two! A circle of people, the bottle mouth to whom, is who chooses. After playing for an hour, most people finished the round, but it''s strange that song Tianye, Li Yunze and he Yining can''t turn. It was as if the three of them had an aura of rejection of the bottle. Each time they didn''t stop when they turned to yanmiao, or they wandered to the side of director Meng. "I don''t believe it yet..." someone rolled his sleeve and turned up with the bottle. Everyone''s eyes are straight when the bottle slows down When yanmiao turned around, everyone shouted "stop, stop, stop!" Just as the bottle was still turning and seeing that it was about to pass Li Yunze, everyone was a little desperate "Hey, it seems that the three of them have no chance to participate in collective activities today. I suggest that they have a separate table." Some people make complaints about it. "Hey, stop! Ha ha, Li Shao..." I don''t know who shouted excitedly. Then, everyone looked confused and forced, and then shouted. "Li Shao, the truth is a big adventure?" Li Yunze knew that these people played both kinds of games. It didn''t matter and said, "whatever." "Then tell the truth..." "Good!" "Is there a woman Li Shao likes?" Someone asked eagerly. Men look dissatisfied. What question is that?! "Not yet." Li Yunze spoke calmly. As soon as the women listened, their uncontrollable spring hearts rippled. "Is there a woman that Li Shao hates? The one who hates from the bottom of his heart?" A woman asked a derivative question. The corner of her mouth was uncontrollable and sneered. Her line of sight crossed the indifferent he Yining on her face. The atmosphere is a little stiff. After all, after the first day of why Yining''s seafood allergy, it''s a little targeted to ask. "What are you asking? I''ll ask again." "If you ask a question, you can''t ask it again!" The woman glared discontentedly at the man who spoke. "Yes!" Li Yunze spoke faintly at the right time. Most people subconsciously look at he Yining. Song Tianye frowns slightly. Yanmiao looks at the woman who asks questions. As she remembers her revenge, she thinks that the revenge will be repaid sooner or later. When he Yining arrived, he looked indifferent. Because Li Yunze answered "yes", for her, it is the correct way to open it. "Who is it?" The woman asked reluctantly, "what''s the name?" Chapter 1235 Li Yunze looked at the woman, with a sneer like nothing in his mouth, and slowly said, "I have answered the derivative questions, but Li Yunze began to turn, and the initiative of the bottle turned to others again. The women who wanted to pick things before wanted to turn to Li Yunze or he Yining. After several rounds, maybe they were too strong and finally turned to he Yining. "Dr. he, do you choose truth or adventure?" The questioner has a good relationship with the woman who just asked Li Yunze questions. As soon as her words came out, the people on the table felt a special atmosphere Why rather indifferent looking at the questioner, secretly sneering. If she chooses to take a big risk, she can guarantee that they will let her kiss song Tianye, or directly do something bold to song Tianye In front of Li Yunze, she has no image to speak of. She doesn''t care, but she doesn''t want song Tianye to be embarrassed. "The truth." Why do you prefer to speak indifferently? Although you know, I''m afraid the problem of choosing this one is also tricky. "Dr. he''s Li Yunze''s smile on the corner of his mouth is getting deeper and deeper. In the depth of his sight, he has a feeling that he doesn''t even think deeply. Not for the first time To a man who is willing to write a love letter! Li Yunze twists the wine glass with his fingers and slowly raises his eyes, "then change it." Li Yunze spoke, and naturally no one would object. Dong Jiajia and several of them have achieved their goals, and they will stop when they are good. "People who eat public meals love to be demons!" I make complaints about it. Of the five hospitals this time, only Huakang and Shuya are private, and the rest are all public. People who eat iron rice bowls in public affairs are more or less infected with the habit of superiority. They thought it was those years in the past! He Yining listened to Yan Miao''s Tucao, and smiled at his lips. "They make complaints about Li Yunze. I had my first day of action." Yanmiao is a little angry, but when he plans to wait for the flop game, he has a chance to fix Dong Jiajia. "Anyway, he hates me. One more thing and one less thing are no worse..." he Yining looked indifferent. The two women are whispering. Song Tianye, who is sitting on the side, looks at he Yining and gradually loses his mind. She is still like this. No matter how much Li Yunze hates her, she can make fun of herself Just A man who can let Yining write a love letter has only one Li Yunze in the world. The first time Yining gave it to Li Yunze? Song Tianye frowned slightly and couldn''t figure it out. After all, if it''s Li Yunze, it doesn''t make sense. Li Yunze just helped to ask. It seems that Li Yunze doesn''t know? Or is it that Yining just wanted to send Dong Jiajia away, and then held the idea of how to let Li Yunze, so he deliberately said that he didn''t have it for the first time? "Song Tianye, why do you want to stare at my house so directly?" Yanmiao deliberately joked when he saw that song Tianye was looking at why he was rather absent-minded. Song Tianye revived and said half jokingly, "charming, of course." "Poof!" Why rather smiled, "do you want to answer so quickly?" Song Tianye shrugged. "It''s necessary." Yanmiao and he Yining looked at each other and laughed one after another. After changing a game, the atmosphere is much easier. After drinking, everyone''s mood rose obviously one by one "Why don''t you go to the bathroom?" He Yining looked at the time and wanted to call one by one. "I''m not going..." yanmiao has already played hi. He Yining didn''t say anything and walked to the bathroom with his mobile phone On the way, I dialed Fang Zihan''s mother''s number. When I reached the corridor in the bathroom, the phone was connected. Why Ning stopped, stood in front of a pot of green plants, listened and asked her if she thought of her one by one. She said softly with a smile and a drooping eyes: "I think..." In due time, Li Yunze came out of the bathroom Chapter 1236 Li Yunze stopped and looked at why he was smiling at the corners of his mouth. "Then you..." he Yining touched the leaves of green plants with his idle hand and asked with a smile, "... Do you miss me?" "Of course!" One by one, "Mom, I can''t count one hand. I haven''t seen you." He Yining''s nose is a little sour. "But fortunately, we can meet tomorrow!" Smile one by one. He Yining''s nose muttered, "yes, we can meet tomorrow..." "Mom, I really miss you..." one small hand also grabbed a pot of green plants. He Yining swallowed the slightly sour emotion and said, "so do I. I want to!" "One by one, mother will be back tomorrow..." mother Fang shouted, "come and take a bath first." On the phone, Fang Zihan''s mother''s voice came. "Oh..." answered one by one, "Mom, I''ll take a bath first. I love you, mmda... See you tomorrow!" "Love you, see you tomorrow!" He Yining listened to the tender voices one by one, and the just sour and astringent gradually dispersed. Listen to hang up the phone one by one. Why would you rather hang up your hand slowly. Li Yunze heard it from beginning to end. He was inexplicably uncomfortable with the urgency of "missing you" and "meeting tomorrow". He Yining didn''t find Li Yunze''s existence from beginning to end because he talked with 11. He just took a deep breath at the corner of his mouth, put down the stirring green plants, and turned around to go to the bathroom But when she saw Li Yunze standing there, she was stunned first, and a feeling of horror crossed her eyes. He Yining thought hard. Did you mention the word "mother" just now After thinking about it for a while, I found that there was no, so I breathed a sigh of relief. He Yining restrained his mind, took back his eyes on Li Yunze, and walked forward. "It seems that your private life is not as simple as you think..." Li Yunze opened his mouth when he would rather cross him, and deliberately added the word ''simplicity''. Why did Ning stop, clench his teeth and clench his hands, turn his head, look at Li Yunze coldly and say, "why, I can''t catch up with you, and I''ll be widowed for you all my life?" In a word, the choking Li Yunze frowned slightly. "I have no marriage and no boyfriend. Who is my private life just hindering?" Why did Ning sneer, "Li Yunze, you stand here listening to me flirting with people on the phone and questioning me... I don''t know. I thought you liked me and cared about me!" "Who likes you?" Li Yunze was cold, and the sarcasm across his face was his consistent attitude towards he Yining, "he Yining, how can you be so big that you don''t have a good fantasy?" "Oh, my fantasy?" Why did Ning lean and look directly at Li Yunze, "then what''s my identity and what''s the starting point?" "..." Li Yunze frowned. Yeah, why? "However, seeing you so curious, I can tell you..." why should Ning hold the attitude of disgusting Li Yunze and say with a proud smile on his face, "I was just on the phone with my little lover... You don''t know, I love her, I can give my life, and I want to give her all the good..." He Yining originally wanted to disgust Li Yunze, but when it comes to one by one, her eyes unconsciously show love and happiness. Li Yunze looked at her like this and thought that when he heard her say to write a love letter, he gave it to the person who wrote it for the first time... Now he is still discussing the person she loves with him with such an expression? Li Yunze only felt that an inexplicable anger filled his nerves. That feeling was an impulse to tear he Yining. "Tut Tut, I don''t know. Originally, I can love someone more than my desire for you..." he Yining didn''t lie. Every word she said was from her heart, and her expression and eyes were naturally filled with her full emotion. "Really?" Li Yunze gritted his teeth and hissed coldly. "Of course..." why should Ning pick his eyebrows, look at Li Yunze''s cold face and suddenly ask with a smile: "why, are you uncomfortable?" "..." Li Yunze frowned. He Yining was a little proud, "Li Yunze, you won''t suddenly feel that I''m beginning to like someone else because I''ve always liked you. Your straight male cancer psychology starts to be uncomfortable? That''s the kind. Even if you don''t like me, you can''t like other people''s psychology?" He Yining won''t be narcissistic. He feels that Li Yunze''s mood at the moment is because he likes her and doesn''t know it. She still has self-knowledge. Although she spent her whole youth fantasizing about the plot of the novel, the domineering and indifferent male Lord clearly liked the female Lord without knowing it. After abusing the female Lord thousands of times, she regretted and vowed to be only the loyal dog of the female Lord in her life. Unfortunately, novels are novels Li Yunze is a man, but she is not his woman. He Yining''s sneer, coupled with her joking expression, instantly touched Li Yunze''s already tense mood. He Yining gradually stopped smiling. Why, does she feel something wrong with Li Yunze? That expression, as if to "Ah!" Why rather low shout, people have been Li Yunze against the wall. "Li Yunze, are you crazy?" Why is Ning''s back hurt? He bared his teeth and subconsciously wanted to push away Li Yunze. Looking at why Ning was angry, inexplicably, there was something rolling in Li Yunze''s body. When she looked disgusted and wanted to push him away, the rolling things in her body seemed to suddenly control his mood Handsome face down! When the lips of the two people overlapped together, why Ning suddenly widened his eyes. He forgot his action when he pushed Yunze''s hand The surrounding atmosphere became strange. Li Yunze''s head suddenly woke up at the moment when his lips met he Yining. At this moment, he knew he should leave, but why... The softness of her lips made his body tight and produced a surge of hormones?! Why did Ning Mulan fan his lower eyelashes? Between his nose, there was the breath of Li Yunze. That kind of breath can bewitch all her nerves for her. Once, how many ways did she use to kiss him? Even many times, she can hold him, and one day, she will take the initiative to kiss her dream to sleep There is a slight astringency in the nose. That astringency is the best memory of the whole youth. "I''ll go..." Suddenly, a voice came out of place. Why should Ning suddenly come back? She knew that at this moment, she should push Li Yunze away, and then slap him hard to preserve her "reputation". But she didn''t give up. Even if this is just the overlap of lips, there is no further deep kiss. Even if... It will be bad to hear later! Chapter 1237 He Yining, you are really cheap! He Yining''s sad stomach Fei "God, what''s going on?" Then there was a scream. At the right time, Li Yunze let go of he Yining. He didn''t look at the shock on the face of the same person who came to the bathroom, but looked at he Yining with a complex look. He looks really crazy. He kissed him because he was angry. Why? Even He didn''t want to leave, but he felt it when he touched it. Is he empty space, or... What''s the reason? Li Yunze''s mind turned a hundred times. Looking at why Ning''s face gradually overflowed with a sneer, he couldn''t tell the taste in his heart. "Li Yunze," he Yining said coldly, not knowing which nerve was wrong, "thank you for always pushing me to the top of the storm..." Li Yunze frowned slightly. There was a feeling of self reproach at the bottom of his eyes. He Yining''s words angered him again. "Since you''ve thanked me, I''ll help you again!" Li Yunze said coldly. Before he Yining reacted, he kissed her again under the gaze of the other two viewers The sound of inverted absorption came with surprise. Why Ning also widened his eyes and looked at Li Yunze''s close face, but he forgot his reaction. This time, it is not the overlapping of lips, but the crazy burning under the crazy demand. Li Ze didn''t know he was crazy at this moment. The two spectators didn''t know whether they had forgotten their reaction or something. They stood in place and motionless looked at Li Yunze''s overwhelming kiss, why Ning Why Ning''s expression, because Li Yunze''s head blocked them, they couldn''t see it. But this does not affect them to outline why they are "intoxicated" with Li Yunze''s kiss at the moment. "Oh" a light hum came, Li Yunze only felt the bloody breath in his mouth. He stared at why Yining, and why Yining also stared at him. The two people seem to be competing. At the moment, they don''t care what will be passed on by the audience, but they face each other with angry eyes He Yining confronted each other for a while, but there was really no momentum. He couldn''t help but feel a sneer at him. Li Yunze frowned slightly and finally let him go. There was a trace of blood on the mouth skin. He Yining didn''t show mercy at all. He not only bit Li Yunze''s tongue, but also rubbed off a bit of the mouth skin. The surrounding atmosphere is getting more and more treacherous. Why should Ning suddenly feel funny. "Li Yunze, I never knew that you can''t control your emotions..." he Yining really smiled. "Then, how can you live and go back?" "..." Li Yunze frowned. He Yining smiled, but the corners of his mouth hung cold hum, "tell me, what are you doing now?" Paused, "if you want to chase me back, I have to be proud..." "The eyebrows have been closed. "Hey, did you suddenly find out you liked me?" He Yining blinked her eyes. She used to be cunning when she used to tease Li Yunze. "You think too much..." Li Yunze said coldly and let go of the clamp on he Yining. However, looking at her line of sight, people can''t understand his emotion. "He Yining, male hormones sometimes have nothing to do with love. You''re a doctor, don''t you understand?" "..." why Ning twitched at the corners of his mouth, didn''t bother to talk with Li Yunze, pushed him away and said coldly, "there are so many people who like your hormones. Don''t think I owe you all day. Come if you want to get close, and you''ll get out if you look at me!" The words fell, why Ning stared at Li Yunze, turned and walked to the bathroom. Angry? He Yining sighed secretly and felt that the biggest gain of pursuing Yunze from small to large was not to be discouraged, but also particularly easy to be satisfied. I know it''s impossible, and I know that Li Yunze''s kiss to her just now was really angered by her, causing straight male cancer However, she is still very happy. The previous dream has come true... Shouldn''t you be happy?! He Yining entered the bathroom "as if nothing had happened", and Li Yunze''s face was shrouded in a layer of haze. No matter what he kissed her for, he Yining would have told the world that he kissed her Such calm Li Yunze frowned slightly. Is it true that he was talking about "straight male cancer"? Do you feel uncomfortable when she fell in love with others and gave all the things she had done to him to another man? "Cough..." The two viewers felt that they didn''t have a sense of existence and wanted to go to the bathroom, but Li Yunze was there all the time. Looking at the direction of why Ning disappeared, some didn''t know whether to go there or not. Li Yunze took back his sight and was completely not seen by the audience. He was embarrassed about how he Yining was. He just walked out with a cold face. When the words "thank you" suddenly stopped in my mind. The hearts of a man and a woman were inexplicably tight, and they felt the cold breath of Li Yunze. Li Yunze didn''t even look at the two people. His eyes fell flat ahead, his voice was gentle, but he said with awe inspiring: "if I can hear what I just saw after leaving this corridor, then you don''t mix in the medical field..." Plain words fell, Li Yunze slightly tilted his head, glanced at the two people, then raised his step and walked out indifferently. The two spectators swallowed involuntarily. They don''t doubt what Li Yunze said. If the Li family wants to make any doctor unable to stay in Los Angeles, it''s a matter of minutes. They looked at each other and walked to the bathroom. That man is fine. Originally, men were born without women gossip. It''s just that the woman originally thought she saw a big news and planned to go back and share it with you But when it comes to her future, she can only bear gossip. Why would you rather wash your hands after going to the bathroom? The audience just came out after going to the bathroom She looked at why she was calm and indifferent in the mirror, secretly sneered and deliberately asked, "doctor he, did you and Li Shao know each other before?" He Yining didn''t speak. The woman sighed and continued: "Alas, women, you have to be beautiful..." she lowered her eyes and opened the water pipe to wash her hands, "beautiful, always more attractive." She looked in the mirror at he Yining. "People like us have to work dozens of times harder than those beautiful like you... But in the end, no matter how hard they work, no face is important." The more she said, the more sour the woman''s tone was. "It''s sad to think about the face Watching Society... Even Li Shao is no exception!" He Yining naturally heard her mysterious voice, but said he seduced Li Yunze with his face. Secretly sneered. Why would you rather turn off the water and look at the woman with a sneer: "it''s very simple. You can go to cosmetic surgery. Isn''t it popular now? I don''t know. I''ll take a fancy to it!" The woman''s face suddenly changed, but he Yining ignored it and turned away from the bathroom Angry curses came from behind, but he Yining looked indifferent. After the collapse of the he family, he Yining really restrained her arrogant temper. It doesn''t mean that others ridiculed her casually, and she doesn''t care. Chapter 1238 After Li Yunze went out, he didn''t go back to the restaurant. He just sent a text message to director Meng, saying that he had something to do and left the research institute first. Unlike other doctors present, he must leave in the morning, and it is not easy to stop Dean Meng. Aston Martin galloped wildly in the night. Li Yunze looked ahead and gradually became familiar with the bottom. He felt inexplicably agitated, that kind of agitated and indescribable feeling. The most important thing is that the more annoyed he is, the shadow of why Ning keeps echoing in his mind Not for the first time. To a man who is willing to write a love letter When I called, I said I missed the man and couldn''t wait to meet him. She even said she was willing to give her life for that man! "Squeak -" The harsh sound of tires rubbing on the road is particularly harsh on the quiet road in the suburbs. Li Yunze leaned back on his seat a little tired and looked at the faint floating dust under the light emitted by the headlights, gradually losing his mind. When a person is full of the memory of your whole youth, no matter good or bad, it seems to have been used to it. But such a habit Is it a good thing or a bad thing?! Li Yunze rubbed his eyebrows. He took his mobile phone and called Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen went abroad to deal with things. As soon as he got on the bus, his mobile phone vibrated He took it out and saw that it was Li Yunze. He picked it up. "Did you come back?" Li Yunze asked. "Just got off the plane..." "That''s just right," Li Yunze sat up slightly, "have a drink on heaven night." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "no time." "..." Li Yunze''s face turned black immediately. "Just got off the plane and now, what are you busy with?" "Go to see Mo''er..." Gu Beichen answered naturally. "Shit!" Li Yunze was angry. "You''re forgetting your friends when you see the color." "No way, my wife is a lifetime, and my brother can''t accompany me for a lifetime..." Gu Beichen''s voice was indifferent. As soon as Li Yunze heard it, he was more irritable. He didn''t say anything and hung up angrily. Of course, he was not angry. Gu Beichen went to find Jian Mo instead of drinking with him. After all, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo missed four and a half years. When Jian Mo and Su Jun left for England, he also watched Beichen sad He was just angry with himself. When Gu Beichen talked about Jian Mo, he suddenly felt lonely and cold. Even his mind was full of he Yining. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen listened to the "dudududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududu. He tilted his head, looked at the gift brought to Jian Mo from abroad, thought about it, and called Li Jinxi. "Beichen?" Li Jinxi is working overtime. Recently, her company has a concert to do. "Yunze is in a bad mood. Give him a call." Li Jinxi frowned slightly. "He''s in a bad mood. How can you call me?" She wondered, "isn''t it usually your business?" "I''m busy." Gu Beichen frowned. "I''m busy too..." Li Jinxi put down his pen, rubbed his eyebrows and said, "no matter how busy you are, don''t you have a Xiao Jing?" Gu beichenjun''s face tensed, "can chasing his wife Xiao Jing help?" "..." Li Jinxi laughed, "Beichen, aren''t you? Chasing your wife? Did I hear you wrong..." Suddenly, she thought of something. "Hey?" Li Jinxi was full of gossip. "You asked me where fried rice noodles were delicious that night. Did you buy it for that woman?" "...." Gu Beichen said nothing. "Shouldn''t you be more concerned about Yunze now?" "But I''m more curious about your wife!" Li Jinxi asked with a smile, "who did you say? I won''t work. Go and see Yunze." "Li Jinxi, Yunze is a younger brother who is a few minutes younger than you..." Gu Beichen said coldly, "love or not." He hung up, too. Li Jinxi, a woman, has learned more and more unseemly since she married Chen Yu. Make complaints about Li Jinxi in Beichen. This is also the same. "I hid my wife four years ago. I don''t know who it is?" Li Jinxi glanced, "why do you chase a wife now and hide it... If you have the ability to hide it all your life, don''t let others know." Li Jinxi mobile phone make complaints about the same time, took the phone to Li Yunze called. Li Yunze got out of the car, leaned on the body and lit a cigarette. It looked as lonely as it would be in the night. When the mobile phone rang, Li Yunze just glanced at the call, picked it up and put it in his ear, "Beichen asked you to call?" Yes, yes. That''s an understanding of brothers "Yo, listen to this voice. What about the sad spring and autumn at night?" Li Jinxi got up and poured himself a glass of water. Li Yunze took a smoke. In the dark, a little spark dyed the surrounding air lonely. "I''m fine," Li Yunze said. "All right, you can do whatever you need. Hang up." Li Jinxi stopped and frowned slightly, "Yunze, what''s the matter?" Li Yunze was silent and said faintly, "something happened. I''m a little annoyed. I originally asked Beichen to come out for a drink. He''s not free..." he paused. "If you''re not busy, come out for a drink with Chen Yu." "OK." Li Jinxi readily promised, "I''ll see you in heaven in an hour." "Yes!" Li Yunze answered, hung up the phone, threw away the cigarette, put it out and got on the car. A series of movements are free and smooth. The car roared away from the suburbs. Li Yunze thought, maybe, he is really just straight male cancer. He Yining''s life has nothing to do with him. As long as he doesn''t care about her and pay attention to her, such a "disease" will heal without treatment. ¡­¡­ Because of Li Yunze''s departure, everyone had a better time. However, the first two viewers always looked at he Yining out of control. He Yining is ready to be the target of public criticism, but obviously, the two viewers have no intention to spread the news that she and Li Yunze kissed together. The crowd didn''t break up until midnight, when most of them were slightly drunk. "I can''t sleep as soon as I finish drinking..." yanmiao''s face is slightly red. "Yining, will you accompany me around?" "OK." He Yining is also a little drunk. Xu yes, she was just immersed in Li Yunze''s kiss and drunk! Just like in college, the people in the dormitory get together and play hi. In the end, they all like to wander around the playground. Talk about ideals, talk about life... Talk about men! Yan Miao listened to why Ning kept talking there, and finally sighed helplessly. "He Yining, can you be a little promising... You''ve been in college since childhood, and now for so many years, as long as you talk about ideals, life and men, you''re a Li Yunze." Yanmiao glanced, "I thought that after this year, you have trained, can you not let him occupy all of you?!" Why rather smile, drunk and confused, especially confused, "but he really occupies all of me, goes deep into my bones and blood, and how can he disappear because of time?" Chapter 1239 Sad voice, but with a trace of sweetness This is not only the happiness of he Yining, but also her sadness. Why should Ning circle yanmiao''s arm, gently lean her head against her shoulder, smile at the corners of her mouth, and look at the moon in the ink sky, which seems charming. "Yan Yan, he kissed me at that time..." he Yining didn''t take care of Yan Miao''s surprised look and continued, "I think my life is really over." "I''ll go. When did it happen?" Yan Miao widened his eyes and suddenly stopped, "how can Li Yunze kiss you?" Look, even a good friend feels unbelievable. Why is there a touch of self mockery in the corners of Ning''s mouth, but the bottom of his eyes is completely happy. "Yes... No matter what reason, how is it possible?" He Yining said, his nose a little sour, "but this kiss, I can''t control myself again. I want to be with him, even if I know I will be humble in the dust..." Why Ning''s eyes are a little red, and the fundus is gradually dense with a thin layer of water mist. Yanmiao looked at he Yining painfully. When she was about to cry, she held her in her arms "Yining, although I don''t want to see you torture yourself because of Li Yunze," yanmiao said solemnly, "but if you really can''t let go, try again..." Hot tears fell from the eyes. Wine is a good thing. It can make people forget their troubles and become sentimental. The whole dream of youth She doesn''t stop liking Li Yunze for a moment. She will only become more and more loving as she grows older. That time, at the medical school party, Li Yunze was too drunk by everyone. She just greedily wanted to stay with him for a while, send him to the hotel room, and was overwhelmed by his unconscious Yes, she is greedy. Knowing clearly what kind of response a woman will have to the hormones in a man''s body when he is drunk, she didn''t push him away, and even kissed him on her own initiative What happened seemed unexpected, but it was reasonable. One night, she thought she had fulfilled her dream of Li Yunze and could "put him down" and stay away from him. But she was wrong! She was not satisfied, but greedily left one by one Is it lonely? Or because there is no family, hoping to have a family? Or, her darkest place is actually the hope that because of one by one, she will always have an ambiguous relationship with Li Yunze. So she was happy when he kissed her with anger. Why rather the corners of the mouth smile, but the tears can''t help falling. Yan Miao felt even more sad when he Yining saw this. Yining is such a strong girl. She used to be so energetic, but now she can only disguise herself with indifference. While deceiving others, she hopes to deceive herself. Can deceive herself, can she really put down Li Yunze slowly? However "Yan Yan, I want to be with him..." he Yining said slowly with a sad voice and hazy eyes looking at the night ahead. "However, I no longer have the courage to waste my time recklessly, and I''m afraid I''ll be rejected by him again. I can''t stand it." Why Ning''s smile is full of sarcasm, "so I disguise myself and let him think I''m not crazy for him... Maybe only in this way can I deceive myself and really leave him." "No matter what you decide," yanmiao hugged him. "Zihan and I are your family. You never face it alone. Don''t be afraid. There is no shelter when you are injured." Why would she rather close her eyes? She''s glad Once in a rich family, when she didn''t know people clearly, she also made friends like Fang Zihan and yanmiao. ¡­¡­ Paradise night, ten years like a day of drunkenness. Li Yunze felt that he was abusing himself by calling Li Jinxi and Chen Yu to have a drink with him. Look at the couple. It''s like they''re here to accompany him. It''s like they''re here to ignore him. The one with eyedrops has been flirting over there Hey, the picture is really hot eyes. Li Yunze shook his head secretly, and those who shouted by himself should pretend to be indifferent when kneeling. "There seems to be something wrong with Yunze." Chen Yu kissed Li Jinxi and said. Li Jinxi glanced at Li Yunze, who was drinking there alone, and said seriously: "although I don''t study medicine, I can still judge that Yunze is because there are no women for too many years, which leads to endocrine disorders. Androgens are stimulated too surging, so I can only rely on drinking to attack poison." "..." Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth and looked at his wife, but nodded with a spoiled face, "my wife is right!" "Bang!" Suddenly, a resounding sound came. Li Jinxi and Chen Yu were shocked by the sound and looked at Li Yunze with a dark face. "Hey, you two are enough!" Li Yunze gritted his teeth. Chen Yu had a wicked smile on her face, with a bad energy. "Wife, Yunze hates you..." "Yes!" Li Jinxi nodded angrily, "I can see it too. Why don''t we bother him and go?" "Good idea!" Chen Yu said that he had put down his overlapping legs and got up, taking advantage of the situation to pull up Li Jinxi. Li Jinxi took the bag and left with Chen Yu Li Yunze looked at the two people really left. After scolding "rely", he asked for a pile of wine and continued to drink. Once Beichen failed to propose to Jian mo. here, a person drank a lot of wine, was drunk to death, and shouted Jian Mo''s name... He was distressed, but he also felt that Beichen was too pretentious. But what is he now? I''m drinking alone here?! Li Yunze thought, but he didn''t stop drinking. After a while, a pile of empty wine bottles were placed on the table. Even so, he was not drunk at all. On the contrary, the more you drink, the more sober you are, and the more sober you are, the more you keep echoing in your mind the kiss you kissed with he Yining at that time Even, I think of many crazy things I had done to him before. "I look really crazy..." Li Yunze rubbed his swollen forehead, looked at the empty bottle and got up irritably. "Li Shao," the foreman of Paradise night said when he saw Li Yunze coming out, "Miss Li has found a substitute driver for you and is waiting downstairs." "Yes." Li Yunze answered faintly. Car, shuttling through the late night of Los Angeles. Li Yunze put his arms on the door and let the wind blow his face from the window with the speed of the car, blowing his whole thoughts out of order. And originally not drunk, after the wind blows, the whole head begins to be dizzy Li Yunze did not return to Li''s villa, but to his apartment in the urban area. It is a high-end apartment owned by Emperor Group, which is located in the city center. Li Yunze stumbled out of the car and walked to the elevator with instinct The valet driver also followed out. She opened her mouth, clenched the car key in her hand, and followed Chapter 1240 Li Yunze''s steps became vain and weak because of the wind after drinking. He pressed the elevator and went in when the elevator door opened Dai Jia also followed in. Li Yunze didn''t look at her from beginning to end. Even, he fell into his own thoughts and didn''t know anyone was following. Pressing the number of floors, Li Yunze closed his eyes and felt that his head was getting heavier and heavier. It was like a shot put rolling around. With a Ding, the elevator arrived. When the elevator door opened, Li Yunze raised his feet and walked out At the door, he pressed the code lock, opened the door and walked in. At the same time, he threw the door At the moment when the door was about to close, Daijia hurriedly pushed the door. Li Yunze didn''t notice. After taking off his shoes, he pulled his tie and threw it away. Then he untied his shirt and went to the bathroom while taking it off. The valet driver gently closed the door and listened to the sound of the water in the bathroom. She was hesitant, but after thinking about it, she finally walked in Li Yunze let the warm water wash his body. He supported the wall with one hand and his head hung slightly. The water wet his hair and completely hung to the front, showing a sense of rebellion. I don''t know how long it lasted. Li Yunze just felt his head hurt more and more. Finally, he simply turned off the shower, pulled a big towel, wiped it casually, and walked out naked Pushing open the bedroom door, Li Yunze turned and went to the dressing room, took his nightgown and put it on his body. Suddenly, his hand, which had not yet fastened the belt, suddenly stopped. Then a pair of eyes that were familiar with drunkenness looked aside I saw a woman lying on his bed with her bare shoulders exposed, and I could see the looming gullies! Li Yunze narrowed his eyes slightly and wondered how likely he was to have drunk hallucinations? But obviously, he''s not an illusion. Today, although he drank a lot of wine and blew the wind, the whole person was dizzy, but he was not "drunk", how could he have hallucinations? Even if there are hallucinations, shouldn''t it be he Yining who should lie there? "..." Li Yunze was suddenly speechless about his ideas. Is he crazy all night? Everything can be associated with that woman! The valet driver was a little uneasy. He saw Li Yunze standing there all the time and didn''t move when he looked at her. He didn''t know what the situation was. Just now he came in naked, because he didn''t find her, and all his actions were so casual. She thought that Li Yunze would have a beautiful and handsome face and look good when wearing clothes. Sure enough He is not only in good shape, but also the kind that excites women''s bodies. Maybe it''s because I just took a bath. Male hormones stand tall and straight under the volatilization of alcohol, so that people can''t help but expand their blood vessels. "Li Shao..." Dai Jia''s voice shouted softly, and moved with the trend. The quilt slipped slightly, revealing most of her proud upper circumference. Li Yunze regained his mind. His eyes, which had been blurred by the thought of why, suddenly seemed to be poisoned, "get out!" One word, cold and fierce. Dai Jia raised his lower lip, looked at Li Yunze''s indifference and clenched his teeth secretly. When a man is drunk, his desire for that aspect will be greater than usual. In addition, as soon as she lay here naked, Li Yunze didn''t bother to look more? Li Yunze ignored the woman and just walked out while wearing a belt After taking the mobile phone, Li Yunze called Li Jinxi. "Yunze?" Li Jinxi heard some cheap voices. "Li Jinxi, are you crazy to get some thoughtful woman to drive for me for no reason?" Li Yunze said coldly. "I see you all night, your face is full of... Labor," Li Jinxi said. "Lack of love, lack of love, lack of women... As a sister who is only five minutes older, I naturally want to think about your sexual welfare." "..." Li Yunze looked angry. What is it that his face is short of love, love and women? "Don''t worry, Xia Xiao is clean and doesn''t insult your fierce body." Li Jinxi continued. "I think you are too busy..." Li Yun TSE finished his teeth and hung up the phone. Turning around, Li Yunze went to the bedroom again. "Get dressed and get out of here!" Li Yunze said that the man had turned and went to the dressing room. When Xia Xiao put on his clothes reluctantly, Li Yunze also changed his clothes. As he walked out, he called, "come to my apartment tomorrow, change my bed, and disinfect the house thoroughly... Me? I''ll go to the hotel first in the evening." At the same time, Xia Xiao heard the door slam shut. "Li Yunze, you are as cruel as rumors. You have no feelings for women!" Xia Xiao said angrily. When she left Li Yunze''s apartment, Li Jinxi called. "Xiaoxiao, what''s the situation?" Li Jinxi is nestling in Chen Yu''s arms and eating his skinned grapes. "Yunze seems very angry." "Didn''t you say he drank too much today? It must be easy to handle it?" Xia Xiao was annoyed. "I think it''s more difficult for him to deal with it than when he was awake." Occasionally I saw Li Yunze in the hospital. He looked warm and moist. It didn''t seem that he was superior because of his high medical skills. But when he just told her to "go away", he had no face at all. Li Jinxi spit the grape seeds on the hand handed over by Chen Yu and continued: "anyway, if you want to win Yunze, it''s right to take the initiative." Xia Xiao was in a bad mood and entered the elevator. "OK, I''m thinking of something myself!" "En..." Li Jinxi answered and hung up. "I said you could not make complaints about this," Chen Tucao, who meticulously stripped Li Jinxi of grape skins, "listen to what you said at the beginning of Yun Ze and why he was Ning. You sure that the woman''s initiative, Yun Ze has no aftertaste of the antipathy?" Li Jinxi shrugged, "but you can also see that Yunze looks like an active person? Dad is worried to death... Waiting to have grandchildren!" Chen Yu''s hand peeled the grapes and paused slightly. There was a little loss across his eyes. ¡­¡­ the second day. Doctors from various hospitals who participated in academic research left one after another. Just before leaving, we learned some friendship and established a wechat group. We thought that we would get together occasionally in the future, which would also facilitate our discussion on several operations this time. He Yining didn''t really want to add it, but everyone added it. It''s not good for her to be special. After the big deal, be a ten thousand year diving party in the group. Yanmiao and he Yining walked together, rubbed Shuya''s car back to the city, and then went to Fang Zihan''s house together. Fang''s mother knew they were coming. She bought vegetables early in the morning and was ready to make a rich meal for several girls to make up for. "Mom, I miss you so much!" Seeing he Yining one by one, he rushed over. "Just think of your mother, no matter aunt Yan Yan?" Yan Miao asked deliberately pretending to be jealous. One by one, he Yining put his little arm around him, rubbed it with a smile, and kissed him on yanmiao''s face, "I also want aunt Yanyan, but I miss my mother most!" "Forget it, it''s for your mother''s sake, don''t care..." yanmiao picked his eyebrow. "You know, it''s no use worrying about it!" Make complaints about the way. Yanmiao rolled his eyes and said he was unable to refute. Chapter 1241 The small apartment was crowded with many people at once, and suddenly became lively. In the middle of waiting for lunch, the little girl thought about why she would rather go to the balcony "Tut Tut, I''m so small. I''m so careful and whisper!" Yanmiao is dissatisfied. Fang Zihan smiled and said, "there are ghosts one by one!" "At first glance, it is the seed of Yining. When you see one by one, you can think of what Yining was like when he was a child..." Here, Fang Zihan and Yan Miao boring make complaints about it. On the balcony, one by one, but it''s rare to hesitate. "What''s the matter?" Why would you rather squat down and look down one by one. One by one, he opened his mouth and muttered, "Mom, there will be a speech at school next week..." "Well, then?" "The title is..." one by one, his eyes drooping, his little hands stirring, "the title is... It''s my father!" He Yining looked at one by one, and his nose was sore with pain. One by one, I occasionally ask ''dad'', but she doesn''t know how to tell her In other words, she doesn''t know how to explain, so that she can understand without hurting one by one. "Want to know one by one, dad?" Why would you rather rub your little head one by one. One by one suddenly raised his eyes. In his big eyes, he quickly nodded with the light of desire. He Yining looked at one by one''s eyes, with a bitter but happy smile in his mouth. "Then I''ll go home with my mother, and my mother will tell you, okay?" "Good, good!" One by one nodded happily and said, just like a chicken pecking rice. Looking at her daughter''s happy appearance because she wants to know about her father, why should she rather think, why should she escape? Perhaps, children''s acceptance ability is more than adults think, and their strength is also more powerful than adults think. 11. When he Yining looked at her and lost his mind, he put his small arm around him and gave him a hard ''bash'' on her face. "Mom, can we choose the location in the ice cream cake shop?" One by one winked pleasantly, and the black pupil twinkled, "Mom hasn''t taken one by one to eat delicious food for a week!" "OK..." he Yining looked at the flattering look on the face of snack goods. How could he have the heart to refuse? "Yes!" One by one, there was a happy smile on his face immediately, "mom is the best!" "..." why would you rather be speechless and choke. There is a daughter who eats goods. Then, in order to eat, there is no bottom line. What else can she say? "I am sure that I will make complaints about what she takes to eat with her." "Same!" Fang Zihan pounded the SLR in his hand. Yan Miao looked at her. "What gossip have you got lately?" "Yes!" Fang Zihan rubbed his body around yanmiao, "it''s the gossip around..." paused. She said mysteriously, "I found that Gu Beichen often appears in Runze garden recently." "And then?" "Then..." Fang Zihan shrugged, "I can''t get in!" "..." Yan Miao looked at Fang Zihan contemptuously, "then you say a ghost?!" Fang Zihan glanced. "With my sense of smell from being a paparazzi for so many years, I can guarantee... Gu Beichen has an affair." Then she looked at he Yining. "I''m counting. Do you want to help me with Yining?" "Forget it..." yanmiao closed the magazine. "Gu Beichen is not the sunshine boy in those days, and Yining is not the rich man in those days. You''d better not toss about for your little bonus." "I''ll just say." "Gu Fangchen has no time to put down the north line." "Well?" Yan Miao wondered, "is there a bigger news than this?" Fang Zihan raised his eyebrows mysteriously, "I''m going to follow Li Yunze!" "Poof!" Yan Miao was drinking water. As soon as he heard it, he immediately gushed out, "are you kidding?" "Of course not..." Fang Zihan skimmed. "Anyway, the news of them is explosive. I might as well give it for personal gain. I''d rather explore the way first to see if Li Yunze has any women recently and whether he has any bad hobbies in private..." Yan Miao frowned slightly. "If it''s a scum man, let Yining stop thinking as soon as possible..." Fang Zihan continued, "but if you keep clean, I think Yining has one by one in hand, tie them together first, and then love and kill each other!" "..." Yan Miao to Fang Zi Han entered the paparazzi, a series of wonderful ideas, have been unable to Tucao, "you run the news run news, do not make complaints about it." "I''m not stupid!" Fang Zihan said, "I''m still waiting for the wedding of Li Yunze and Yining. I''m exclusive!" "OK," yanmiao said to Fang Zihan, "Yining is coming." The two people have a tacit understanding, but they won''t change the topic abruptly Thanks to the skill he Yining has developed over the years. After lunch at Fang Zihan''s house, we talked for a while. After taking a nap one by one, we dispersed. He Yining is a trustworthy person to children. She believes that children have strong learning ability. Only if you set an example, she will learn. Therefore, she will try her best to do what she promised one by one. After coming out of Fang Zihan''s house, he Yining took one by one directly to Huaxi department store, where there is an ice cream cake shop, which one likes very much. "Well, mom can start..." one by one dug a mouthful of ice cream cake with a spoon and put it into his mouth, "I can give you a minute to brew your emotions." "..." he Yining said with a curl of his mouth, "there''s nothing to brew." "Well, let''s start directly!" 11. Although he was eating, he looked at he Yining with big eyes. The child''s mind is the most simple. Even if he is a little clever, his eyes won''t lie at all. 11. His eyes were full of urgency, but he deliberately pretended to be calm. He looked small, soft and cute, with elves in him. "One by one''s father..." why Ning supported the table with his arms and his cheeks in his hands. Li Yunze''s shadow was already in his mind. "He is a tall and handsome man. Like his mother, he is a doctor." 11. The eyes are brighter. It''s hard to stop eating. He Yining took back his sight on the side when thinking and looked at one by one, "however, he is more powerful than his mother, that is, the very powerful one..." "Yes, yes." One by one nodded hurriedly to show that he understood. He Yining continued: "when my mother met him, he was still very young... When we first met, he was like the prince who came out of the animation..." He Yining tried to tell the story of 11''s father in words that the children could understand. She didn''t speak very deeply or say a lot. She just instilled beautiful things into 11 Just as they heard the rise one by one, the voice of "welcome" came from the door. One by one, they subconsciously looked at the door and saw Li Yunze coming in with one hand and a pocket Chapter 1242 "Mom, I see handsome millet!" One by one, his eyes became brighter. "Yes, he is also a doctor. Will dad be the same as him?" He Yining was stunned by the sudden words one by one, and then turned his head and looked in the direction of one by one He Yining saw Li Yunze talking to the salesperson at the counter. His eyes widened instantly. His first reaction was to turn back quickly, and then press down one by one''s hands with a look of horror. People really can''t "say" behind their back. They will meet "ghosts"! "Mom?" One by one tooted his small mouth and didn''t understand why he Ning looked evil. Mainly, one by one is very angry. Clearly, the corn is very handsome. Why does mother seem to see something disgusting? "Good, eat the cake first..." he Yining''s voice trembled unconsciously, "that, it''s going to melt!" "But you hold my hand!" One by one, more dissatisfied. He Yining''s heart is the same as playing drums. I''m afraid Li Yunze will see it. Although she didn''t think she could hide Li Yunze forever, she didn''t think she would let him find out one by one so early! Why did Ning loose her hand and suddenly rejoice that there was no place when she came. Only this corner was still empty. Moreover, she turned her back to the counter. If you sit by the window you like one by one, Li Yunze gets off and can see them at a glance, isn''t it The more you think about it, the more confused your heart becomes. "You want to be handsome and don''t want to hear about your father?" Why would you rather use your mace. Listen one by one and shake your head quickly. Although Shuai millet is very handsome, she is certainly not as handsome as her father. She still chooses her father. Pick up the spoon one by one, hang your head, dig a mouthful of cake and put it into your mouth Timely, Li Yunze glanced at the natural reaction while waiting for the clerk to pack the cake. However, that glance was just a flash of subconsciousness, leaving no information. "Sir, it''s packed..." the clerk said. Li Yunze calmly took back his sight, took the packaged cake and turned to leave One by one, he raised his head and looked uncontrollably at the sales counter. Seeing that Li Yunze turned and left, he was a little lost, "Shuai millet has gone." He Yining listened and secretly looked back Sure enough, Li Yunze had left with the cake. He Yining secretly breathed a sigh of relief, but found that his heart was a little sour. Li Yunze, like many men, doesn''t eat sweets like cakes. Who did he buy cakes for?! A woman''s nature is to think wildly. Why should nature be no exception At the thought that he might buy cakes for other women, why Ning''s heart became more and more sour. "Mom," one by one, he Yining kept looking at the door and was dissatisfied, "don''t you want to continue talking about dad?" He Yining turned back, restrained his mind and continued to tell Li Yunze one by one. ¡­¡­ After Li Yunze left the cake shop, he called Li Jinxi, "I bought the cake. Where are you?" "I''m at the Grand Theater. You can send it directly here." Li Jinxi then answered the phone and motioned for the person who moved the piano to place the piano. "Yes." Li Yunze answered, hung up the phone, started the car and drove to the Grand Theater. Although Li Jinxi set him up last night, Li Yunze was helpless for this second cargo sister who was only five minutes older. For example, ask him to help deliver the cake Li Jinxi completely forgot his second goods behavior last night. No way, she is such a happy person. Whether others treat her or her to others, it is not a big thing, and she can forget it quickly. "Move the potted flowers to the side..." Li Jinxi stood under the stage, looked at the overall effect and commanded, "blocking the audience." "Sister Xi, take it off directly? I feel it''s blocked everywhere..." Li Jinxi thought, "OK!" When Li Yunze came in with a cake, he saw Li Jinxi working hard. The Li family is a medical family. From the earliest time when they only engaged in the business of medicinal materials, to the later time when the family members included the production and research of drugs, to now there is the shadow of Huakang hospital in many big cities across the country, which has spent the energy of several generations. In Li Yunze''s generation, the Li family has reached its peak in medicine. Not to mention Li Yunze''s dead brother Li Yunhao, Li Yunze also plays an important role in the medical field. However, Li Jinxi is not interested in medicine at all. He likes to play operas and concerts that some young people don''t like very much. "Yunze..." "Here is the cake you want." Li Yunze raised it and put the cake aside. "Do you want to go back to the hospital later?" "Nothing. You can go back or not." Li Yunze looked at Li Jinxi, "what''s up?" Li Jinxi directly encircled Li Yunze''s arm, "then wait and celebrate the cellist''s birthday with me and have dinner together?" "Where''s Chen Yu?" "He''s going to the film celebration tonight. I don''t want to go." "No, I''ll go with you later. Will there be another inexplicable woman to accompany you?" Li Yunze''s voice is a little cold. "Even if it is arranged for you, it will take some time!" Li Jinxi said solemnly, "I was driven away by you last night. Do you think I would be so stupid?" Li Yunze had a headache. "Li Jinxi, my personal business, can you stop meddling in it?" "Doesn''t that care about you?" Li Jinxi let go of Li Yunze. "Beichen knows he''s going to chase a wife. Look at you. You''re almost 30 years old, and you don''t even have a woman..." she suddenly paused, "Yunze, you won''t really get any female phobia because of why Yining?" "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth. "If so, I think you should go to see the psychology department." Li Jinxi said seriously, "although you are a doctor yourself, you can''t even be mentally ill... Besides, doctors don''t treat themselves." "..." Li Yunze had a headache, "what a mess." Li Jinxi glanced and was thinking of more advice. The stage was arranged. The assistant asked her if she wanted to go through the stage. Li Jinxi looked at the time. "Let''s get together backstage and eat Xiaoyu''s birthday cake first, and then start painting." Li Jinxi motioned Li Yunze to take the cake, and the two went backstage together. The cellist is a 22-year-old girl with a long white skirt and long black straight hair. The whole person looks quiet and full of Fairy Spirit. "Thank you, sister Xi." He Siyu''s voice is as gentle as water. It sounds great. "Thank you for the cake Li Shao bought." Li Yunze shrugged, "happy birthday." "Thank you!" He Siyu looked at Li Yunze with watery eyes, and his face was a little red. Li Jinxi looked at he Siyu and suddenly felt that she had found an affair Tut Tut, where did Yunze go and seduce? In line with the principle of selling Li Yunze early, Li Jinxi stood together with he Siyu while pretending to greet everyone intentionally or unintentionally He Siyu''s face reddened. He cut a cake and handed it to Li Yunze himself. He said shyly, "Li Shao, eat a cake?!" Li Yunze wanted to refuse and said he didn''t like to eat. It''s a little awkward to say ''thank you, but it''s too embarrassing to say'' after the birthday. At the same time, behind the backstage curtain, there was a slight ''click'' Chapter 1243 The next day, a news kicked off a new day. "Li Yunze celebrates the birthday of a cellist in an orchestra, and his suspected girlfriend is exposed" has occupied the headlines of major entertainment. "Oh, really, another diamond king is missing..." In Shuya hospital, nurses have gathered together and started gossiping. "But this woman is quite beautiful. It seems that the two are quite matched." "In my opinion, no one can match Li Shao!" "Except you, right?!" The people around me suddenly make complaints about it, and then everyone''s laughter comes. He Yining changed his white coat and came out of the dressing room. He heard several nurses talking together. "Dr. he, Dr. he..." a little nurse rubbed over, "I heard that you are with Li Shao?" "Yes." Why should I rather answer the voice. "Is he really handsome?" "Is it particularly gentle..." the little nurse fantasized on her face. "I heard that he is super handsome in the operating room." "..." why Ning twitched at the corners of her mouth and thought of the doctors he scolded in the operating room. She felt that these little nurses should ask them. "Don''t be obsessed with flowers." A married nurse smiled and said, "everyone has a girlfriend. What are you crazy about?!" "It''s not marriage. Besides, handsome boys are used for YY!" The little nurse skimmed her lips and said. Suddenly, the two people laughed Why rather slightly frowned, "girlfriend?" "Yes, it''s all exposed." A nurse handed the newspaper to he Yining. He Yining took it and looked at it with confused eyes In the photo, the girl happily handed the cake to Li Yunze. Even if it was a stiff photo, she could feel the full affection. He Yining looked at the picture, his eyes moved down slightly and fell on the cake. For the sake of one by one, she knows several styles of cakes that sell well in this family. Plus I met Li Yunze in the cake shop yesterday Hehe, it turns out... He is celebrating his girlfriend''s birthday. He Yining suddenly sneered. Since he has a girlfriend, why kiss her? "Dr. he, Dr. he?" The little nurse on one side felt something wrong with he Yining and shouted softly. He Yining returned to his mind and quickly converged his emotions. When he looked up, he had recovered his usual appearance, "quite matched!" He Yining handed the newspaper to the nurse. "Get ready and round the room in half an hour." "OK." He Yining turned around and couldn''t control the sour taste in his heart. It turns out that he likes girls like that. Yes Which man doesn''t like a girl who looks like a little sheep waiting to be spoiled and let them reflect their boyfriend''s power? Li Yunze doesn''t like that. Do you like her like this? She has been entangled since childhood. Even in order to attract his attention, there is no lower limit?! He Yining laughed at himself and pulled down the corners of his mouth. If his nose was out of control, it was sour, and the fundus of his eyes was dense with a thin layer of water mist. He Yining was afraid that such weakness would be seen and hurried into the stairwell. Song Tianye just came out of a ward and saw why Ning dodged into the stairwell. He sighed and followed. He Yining subconsciously wants to hide when he sees someone pushing the door. When she saw it was song Tianye, she felt it was useless to hide. "See the report?" Song Tianye knows why. Why is Ning reddish eyes, trying to pull a smile to hide his ears and steal the bell to prove that he is still strong, it doesn''t matter. Unfortunately, she can''t. Song Tianye doesn''t speak any more. He comes forward and hugs he Yining. He Yining''s body suddenly stiffened and was at a loss. "Yining, let yourself go, won''t you?" Song Tianye said in a soft voice with a trace of helplessness, "no man is worth such a good you and such efforts... Li Yunze, not worth it." "However, in love, there is no value..." he Yining''s eyes are more red, "only love does not love." Who loves, who is humble. In love, only mutual love is perfect Song Tianye sighed, "a Li Yunze, he will destroy you." Why Ning''s nose is more sour. She doesn''t know how to face Li Yunze''s girlfriend. For so long, even though Li Yunze bothered her, there was never another woman around him. Maybe this is the driving force for her to stick to it. Now He has a girlfriend. What else can she do? She is bad, but she doesn''t have the courage to destroy other people''s feelings. ¡­¡­ When Fang Zihan saw the report, he was so angry that he almost smashed the SLR in his hand. Even if I have a rude boyfriend, I''ll call her directly... Even if he has a rude girlfriend... " Yan Miao could feel Fang Zihan''s towering anger across the wireless wave, and could not help rubbing his forehead. "Calm down, calm down!" Yan Miao said, "in fact, have you ever thought... If Li Yunze really has a girlfriend, Yining can give up his heart." "Give up?" Fang Zihan said, "look at Yining''s ghost. Can you give up your heart? In this life, I don''t have to die on Li Yunze. I''ll fucking take her last name!" Yanmiao has felt Fang Zihan''s uncontrollable anger. Although she is small, she has a hot temper, which is definitely a multiple of her and Yining. "One thing you have to admit," yanmiao looked at the time, "I''d rather not destroy other people''s feelings." "..." Fang Zihan twitched at the corners of his mouth and pressed down what he was going to say. Indeed, Yining won''t! She will only watch Li Yunze and other women show their love there in her life, and then abuse herself "I really want to go straight to your hospital and beat Li Yunze up." Fang Zihan said angrily. "He entered the operating room early in the morning. If you want to come, remember that in the afternoon, it is estimated that he can come out of the operating room..." "..." Fang Zihan twitched at the corner of his mouth, "yanmiao, you must be the fire extinguisher sent to me by heaven. Whatever gas is with you, you can choke back at last." "I''m afraid I''m too busy to get the award for medical internship..." I''m afraid I''m going to get the award recently. " "Yes." Fang Zihan answered, "be busy first. Go to Yining when you are free in the evening." "OK." Yanmiao hung up the phone, left the office and subconsciously looked at the doctor''s profile sign hanging on the neurosurgery wall. At the top, you can see Li Yunze''s picture at a glance. "Bitch!" Yanmiao gnashed his teeth and scolded, and turned to ward round. Now in the operating room, Li Yunze, who is undergoing surgery, doesn''t know what happened from beginning to end. The nervous operation is going on. Li Yunze''s face is calm. He can only see two words now Confidence! "The second deputy suture..." Li Yunze explained after the operation, and the man left the operating room. He was called back to the hospital early in the morning. The operation lasted more than nine hours. He was highly nervous and relaxed. In addition, he couldn''t sleep well these two days. Li Yunze felt tired all over his body. Back to the office, Li Yunze unbuttoned his shirt and planned to sleep first Suddenly! Li Yunze''s steps stopped. He looked at the blood on the ground, first frowned slightly, and then his sight gradually moved forward Chapter 1244 Li Yunze''s eyebrows gradually frowned, and he walked forward When there was no barrier in his sight, he looked at the people lying there covered with blood on the ground, and immediately came forward with a frightened face. "South?!" Li Yunze shouted, squatted down, first explored the breath of Xialin to the south, then called someone and sent him to the operating room. Li Yunze, ignoring his fatigue, called Gu Beichen and walked to the operating room. However, Gu Beichen''s phone has been on the phone and can''t get through. Li Yunze frowned and called Xiao Jing before the operation "Li Shao?" Xiao Jing was surprised. "Something happened to the south. Tell Beichen later." Li Yunze quickly explained, "I''ll go to the operating room." Xiao Jing quickly answered. Li Yunze installed a mobile phone and entered the operating room Lin Nannan is different from others, including long Xiao and Gu Beichen. For Li Yunze, he is a sworn brother. "The patient was shot one centimeter away from the heart..." after Li Yunze said the symptoms, he asked the nurse for a scalpel and began the operation. Just finished a nearly ten hour operation, and then went to another operation. If Li Yunze hadn''t been used to such a continuous operation, it would be unbearable for ordinary people. The operation lasted until six o''clock in the afternoon. When the sound of "Dang" came, Li Yunze looked at the warhead clamped out by himself on the plate and breathed out secretly. "You can deal with the rest..." Li Yunze said to the second deputy doctor, and then looked at the people in the operating room. "This operation, out of this operating room, I don''t want anyone to discuss." The crowd nodded, "understand, Li Shao." Li Yunze nodded and left the operating room first. Seeing Li Yunze coming out, Gu Beichen frowned and asked, "how''s the south?" Li Yunze said something about Lin Nannan and was afraid. It seems that the special forces should not come back this time. But the injury appeared in his office. Li Yunze was more and more afraid If the previous operation is delayed for a while, or he is not in the hospital, the situation to the South will be very dangerous. "Now I can''t intervene too much in the identity of the south," Gu Beichen said with a dark face and a dignified voice. "Wait until you wake up to the south!" Li Yunze nodded, "I won''t go back tonight. I''ll take care of the south side. Go and be busy." At that time, I informed Gu Beichen that I was afraid that Lin might have something on the way to the south. With Gu Beichen''s ability, I could transfer some things Now that the operation has been successfully completed, we naturally don''t need everyone to stay. Gu Beichen did have something to do. He nodded and hurried away. Li Yunze waited until Lin Nannan was sent to the intensive care unit, and sent an experienced nurse on duty. He returned to the office and planned to have a rest. One day''s high tension, Li Yunze didn''t even have the mood to eat. Into the office, went to the inner room, fell into bed and slept I didn''t know that one day, the news outside had spread a lot of hype about him. Naturally, when Lin Nannan was operated on, he was busy all night last night. Li Jinxi, who didn''t know the news until the afternoon, didn''t receive a call from him. Li Yunze just fell asleep and was woken up by a phone call. He suddenly bounced and sat up, subconsciously thinking that something was wrong with Lin Naner. When he saw that the number was a strange number, he twisted his eyebrows, but still picked up: "Hello, who?" "Hello, I''m Jian mo..." Jian Mo said hurriedly without waiting for Li Yunze to speak. "Gu Beichen seems to have something. It''s inconvenient to call you. Let me tell you. You call him back!" Li Yunze frowned. Although he didn''t understand why, he still answered. After hanging up Jane Mo''s phone, Li Yunze called Gu Beichen. When he heard that something had happened, he hurried to say, "I''ll go right now..." ¡­¡­ "This handsome millet has a girlfriend!" One by one, he threw the tablet aside with dissatisfaction, and hugged his angry little arm in front of his chest, "hum!" Fang Zihan and yanmiao both looked at one by one, then looked at he Yining, and asked ''what''s the situation''?! "There is no resistance to handsome boys one by one. This is'' lovelorn ''!" He Yining said casually. Yanmiao and Fang Zihan twitched at the corners of their mouths and looked at each other with a sigh in their hearts. Suddenly they didn''t know how to comfort and why to be peaceful. "It''s not that I''m lovelorn!" One by one, he looked at he Yining angrily, "he is the husband I like for my mother... He has a girlfriend. It''s black all his life! Hum!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Yanmiao and Fang Zihan looked at each other again and looked at he Yining again This time, both of them saw the loneliness and the helplessness from why Ning''s face. "Everything will pass." Yan Miao opens his mouth. Fang Zihan nodded hurriedly and said softly, "what you say one by one is black all your life!" "Nothing, I''m used to it..." he Yining said. Yanmiao and Fang Zihan don''t believe it at all. Before, it was just that Li Yunze hated Yining. She could still be more frustrated and more brave. But now that he has a girlfriend, Yining is completely buried in the long river of years. You can get used to it. But it''s hard for them to say this... You can''t sprinkle salt on Yining''s wound?! Although, long pain is better than short pain. ¡­¡­ After Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing left the hospital, they were chased, and the car was tampered with. Finally, they had to jump. But at the extremely fast speed, both of them were injured. Xiao Jing went directly into the operating room to protect Gu Beichen. What Li Yunze couldn''t stand most was that Gu Beichen was injured and had to see Jian mo. And he, a poor man, naturally can''t look at his brothers and drive like this. He can only act as a driver again, and then wait for Gu Beichen to pull him back to the hospital after seeing Jian mo Li Yunze directly took Gu Beichen to the examination room and looked at the burned place behind him. Because of the friction of his clothes, a large area began to seep small blood beads, and immediately frowned. "You die!" Li Yunze was a little angry, "let you stay still tonight. You have to go..." Gu Beichen was lying there, and the stabbing pain behind him came in bursts, but his face was happy, "I don''t want to break the appointment, nor do I want Mo''er to worry..." I thought that Jane Mo would worry about him and his son Jane Jie What are these pains? "Yunze, my son will be four years old soon." Gu Beichen''s voice said with hidden happiness. Li Yunze sneered, "your role of being a father has entered very quickly." "Yunze, that''s my son!" Gu Beichen''s voice was sweet. "Wait until you finish Jian mo..." Li Yunze suddenly paused. "What did you just say, is that your son?!" "Yes." Gu Beichen''s face was filled with satisfaction. "You don''t know that a woman will have children for you without you. That''s the expression of her love for you. Therefore, Mo''er must love me!" Li Yunze can''t make complaints about his brother''s happiness, while giving him medicine, he Tucao, "are you sure it''s yours? Do you want to make a DNA comparison? I''ll give you an appointment..." "Even though my eyes were soft, my son said," even if my eyes were cold. " Gu Beichen glanced at Li Yunze obliquely, "people who don''t even have a woman like you can''t tell." "..." Li Yunze grinned, "shit, you have a wife and son, you''re arrogant, all right Li Yunze managed Gu Beichen''s wound and finally rested. At the right time, the mobile phone rang in my pocket. Li Yunze took out his mobile phone while thinking that there would be nothing else Seeing several missed calls above, Li Yunze ignored first and opened the text message just arrived. Although there is no note, you can see the number. Li Yunze knows why it''s better. "Congratulations on finding your girlfriend. From now on, you''re all right!" Seeing the text message, Li Yunze immediately jumped up: "shit, when did I have a girlfriend?" Chapter 1245 Gu Beichen glanced at Li Yunze and frowned slightly, "what''s the matter?" "Inexplicably say I have a girlfriend. When did I have a girlfriend?" Li Yunze looked blankly. "You have to frown a little more," asked Beichen Paused. "Who said that?" Li Yunze''s eyes flashed a strange, full of awkward emotions, "just friends... Say what, congratulations on my girlfriend." Gu Beichen took back his sight. The burns behind him stabbed for a while. Under the instinctive endurance of his body, a thin layer of fine sweat spilled over his forehead, "however, you are old and old. It''s time to solve your personal problems..." Li Yunze didn''t speak. He just looked at the text message he Yining sent, and his eyebrows were knotted. He didn''t know it at all. Gu Beichen looked back. "I''ll have a rest. Are you going to be busy or have a rest? Help yourself." Paused, "my virtue, I can''t appear in front of Mo''er these two days..." Speaking of this, Gu Beichen looked depressed. It was not easy to pester Mo''er''s date, so it was ruined by accident. In this way, even if she was afraid of being smart and found his injury, she had to endure not appearing for two or three days Gu Beichen was talking there. Li Yunze had no mind to listen. He Yining was always in his mind what the message meant. "Have a rest..." Li Yunze said and turned away. "..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and felt that Li Yunze was wrong. However, he didn''t want to say that Gu Beichen naturally couldn''t have to ask Even the best friend must have a certain private space. ¡­¡­ After Li Yunze left Gu Beichen''s ward, he walked to his office and wondered why he would rather send a text message. But after thinking for a long time, I didn''t think of a reason. At the right time, when walking through the nurse station, several nurses on night shift gathered together and didn''t know what they were talking about. Li Yunze didn''t find his steps with enthusiasm. "Isn''t it really Li Shao''s girlfriend?" "You see, he Siyu has been brought out by human flesh... He studied cello since childhood and graduated from Curtis Conservatory of music in the United States. He once set a record of holding Solo Cello concerts in his youngest grade. Now he signs a contract with dream media..." "People are good-looking and talented. No wonder they can stand beside Li Shao." "But how do I feel... Such a little white rabbit girl is not like Li Shao''s dish?!" "Li Shao is usually a gentle and handsome person except when he is in the operating room. I think it''s quite appropriate..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Li Yunze frowned. He went to the nurse station and looked at the gossip nurses across the table. "What are you talking about?" "Li Shao''s girlfriend..." someone answered reflexively. Then the atmosphere suddenly became strange. People who had not found Li Yunze were met with embarrassment on their faces. Don''t say that their gossip about Li Shao was found. It''s still working time. It''s not appropriate for them to gather here to discuss gossip. "Li Shao..." someone wanted to break this strange atmosphere. Li Yunze frowned slightly, "my girlfriend?" He whispered and then motioned to the person holding the mobile phone, "let me see your mobile phone." The nurse instinctively "Oh" and carefully handed over the mobile phone Li Yunze took over. The interface is the water area of Los Angeles forum. He seems to have overshadowed Gu Beichen and become a hot figure. The content is very simple. He was found to have a girlfriend. And this girlfriend is the cellist of Li Jinxi company, that is, he Siyu, who had his birthday yesterday. Li Yunze''s face is dark. The nurses looked at each other and exchanged eyes. They speculated whether Li Yunze was angry because he was exposed or something else The mobile phone owner is just praying that his mobile phone will not be crushed by Li Yunze because he is angry. Li Yunze took a deep breath, put his mobile phone on the table, turned and left "What''s going on?" "I don''t know!" The crowd shook their heads and looked blankly. Li Yunze took out his mobile phone and called Li Jinxi directly When Li Jinxi''s phone rang, Chen Yu was flirting with her. "Is Li Yunze finished?" Chen Yu was dissatisfied. "Why do we always call when we are in progress?" Li Jinxi and Chen Yu are in a state of selflessness and suddenly stop. They are not happy, "no matter!" Since she said no more, Chen Yu naturally ignored it Unfortunately, Li Yunze didn''t answer again, and then called the second time, the third time When the mobile phone rings, Chen Yu and Li Jinxi seem to have lost their previous nature, so they can only settle Li Yunze with a truce first. "Yunze, is it really good to call so late?" Li Jinxi''s voice was dull after a trace of excitement. Li Yunze was no longer in the mood to pay attention to what Li Jinxi was doing. "Li Jinxi, please explain to me... Are you not enough women? Another one, huh?" There was an uncontrollable anger in the dissatisfied voice. Li Jinxi was ignorant at first. When he waited behind, he knew what Li Yunze was talking about? "I''ll call you this afternoon just to say this..." Li Jinxi raised her eyebrow. "Explain in advance. It has nothing to do with me. Paparazzi sneaked into the backstage. Originally, I wanted to secretly take pictures of the concert staff. Who knows such a big news as you." "Not you?" Li Yunze didn''t believe Li Jinxi because of the his criminal record of the driving. "It''s not me..." Li Jinxi rolled his eyes. "Am I the kind of person who doesn''t admit it?" She said, looking at Chen Yu. Chen Yu shook her head with a spoiled look on her face and planted a strawberry on Li Jinxi. "And..." Li Jinxi found keenly, "Yunze, is your reaction too big?" "Although you didn''t arrange it, when the news came out, you didn''t intend to crisis public relations, or even make the news bigger and bigger..." Li Yunze said coldly, "Li Jinxi, I saved you advertising expenses, didn''t I?!" "I..." "Doodle doodle..." "..." Li Jinxi looked confused. "He was so angry that he hung up the phone." Chen Yu slightly propped up his body, put his arms on the bed and didn''t let his weight on Li Jinxi. "Although Yunze is clean, it''s not such a news that he''s so angry..." "So?" Li Jinxi looked blankly. Chen Yu sighed, "thanks to you and Yunze being twins, why don''t you have a little brain?" "..." Li Jinxi pinched Chen Yu fiercely, "I have no brain. Will I marry you?" Chen Yuxie smiled, "this is the most intelligent thing you''ve ever done..." "..." Li Jinxi twitched at the corners of his mouth. Just when he wanted to get angry, he heard Chen Yu say, "I always think Yunze is a little strange after drinking the night before yesterday. Do you want me to send a professional to follow?" Chen Yu is an entertainment company. There are stars, TV stations, radio stations, magazines... Naturally, there is no shortage of professional paparazzi. "Forget it," Li Jinxi thought and shook his head, "if there''s really something wrong, it''s not fun to screw up..." Chen Xuan raised her eyebrows and said it didn''t matter. "Then let''s continue..." Chen Yu threw Li Jinxi''s mobile phone aside and immediately entered the next round of primitive battle Li Yunze was busy all day, but he didn''t feel sleepy at all. He looked at he Yining''s text message and thought for a long time. After all, he dialed back Chapter 1246 The table lamp shrouds the figure of why I would rather sit in bed, with endless sadness and loneliness. She curled her legs, held her arms, and buried her head in her knees When someone came, she didn''t dare to reveal her sadness at all. Even, many times, in order to deceive others and herself, she will put herself into that hypothetical strength. But all this, when I learned that Li Yunze had a girlfriend, turned out to be so vulnerable Tears, uncontrollable, overflow from the closed eyes, scalding the cheeks and astringent the taste buds. Why would you rather bury it in your face in your knees because of the raging tears. However, she tried to pull the corners of her mouth, even if that smile was full of self mockery. Wake up?! He Yining asked himself She clenched her lip, almost bleeding, but even so, she didn''t want to let go of herself at all. She didn''t know how to accept the situation that Li Yunze had a girlfriend and would even marry other women. Why would you rather suck your nose? The more you think about it, the more sad it is. Mobile phones, timely ringing, broke such a sad loneliness. He Yining looked up as if she was going to be found vulnerable, and kept wiping the tears on his face. The bell kept ringing. He Yining picked it up and saw that it was Li Yunze''s number. He was stunned at first, and then subconsciously picked it up without thinking. "He Yining, what is congratulations? I have a girlfriend?" As soon as the phone was connected, Li Yunze''s dissatisfied voice came, "what''s your nerve at night?" Why Ning frowned slightly. Obviously, he couldn''t respond to Li Yunze''s call to "explain" that he didn''t have a girlfriend. "Speak!" Li Yunze''s voice became more and more irritable, "are you capable now? Retreat for progress? Ah?!" "Li Yunze," why rather bite your teeth, "isn''t there a girlfriend? What dare you admit?" Because of crying, there is stubbornness in a slightly hoarse voice. Li Yunze was silent. He didn''t know why. When he heard the voice, he thought why he would rather cry He Yining seldom cried in front of him. When he was a child, he would cry because he bothered her occasionally. But later, when she became more frustrated and brave, she stopped crying In particular, after what happened to the he family, she not only stopped crying, but also became indifferent. But at this moment, I don''t know why. I know she won''t cry, but it happens that she cries in her mind. Li Yunze was a little agitated. "I have. What can I not admit? But you are so nervous at night... Why not? Are you deliberately testing me?" "I''ll test you?" Why did Ning bite his teeth in anger, "why didn''t you say you called specifically to explain to me that you don''t have a girlfriend?!" "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth. He wanted to refute, but found that there was really a bit of misunderstanding. "Funny, why should I explain to you?" Li Yunze said coldly, "I just tell you, don''t send me text messages all day long..." Li Yunze said that and hung up. It seemed that there was an element of guilty conscience, but he didn''t realize it at all. ¡­¡­ He Yining listened to the "beep beep" hang up sound from his mobile phone. He didn''t respond and still held his mobile phone. What did Li Yunze just say? Her subconscious patronage and his quarrel didn''t respond He said he didn''t have a girlfriend?! He Yining suddenly gave a ''ha'' sound and laughed. There were traces of tears on her face, but at this moment, her tight heart was relaxed. He has no girlfriend That is to say, today''s report is just looking at the picture? Thinking, he Yining frowned again. Li Ze or Li Jin bought the cake himself? He Yining feels like a madman. For a moment, he feels sad as if the world is only gray. Now he seems to see a little light But anyway, Li Yunze didn''t have a girlfriend. He Yining was immersed in sadness all day and gradually relaxed He Yining took a deep breath and got out of bed to wash his face. When I opened the door, I saw one by one rubbing my bleary eyes and standing at the door. "Why are you awake?" Why would you rather squat down and twist your eyebrows. One by one deflated his small mouth, "I heard my mother''s voice..." He Yining flashed a strange look on his face. He was thinking about how to explain it. He listened to them one by one and said, "but when I came over, my mother opened the door!" He Yining secretly rejoiced. Fortunately, he didn''t hear anything one by one. "Mom just had a nightmare..." he Yining picked up one by one and went to the small bedroom. One by one was very sleepy. He was lying on he Yining''s shoulder and his voice was comforted by sleepiness: "mom is not afraid, one by one can protect mom!" "Well, one by one is the most powerful..." he Yining was warm in her heart. She put one by one on the bed, covered her with a quilt and kissed her, "go to sleep, mom, go to the bathroom." "Well, good night, mom!" "Good night..." Looking at the eyes that were too sleepy to open one by one, he Yining breathed a sigh of relief. Giving birth to one child may be the most correct decision she has made in her life. Without Li Yunze, at least, she has their common children ¡­¡­ Brunei, Bandar Seri Begawan. The intoxicated night shrouded the villa like a palace, showing the majesty under the mystery. The man stood in front of the French window, and the light from the glazed lamp hanging from the top of the villa pulled the man''s figure out of a treacherous length. The sound of the high-heeled shoes'' pedaling ''on the smooth ground came. The woman in the knee length narrow waist skirt came over with a folder in her hand "Boss, all acquisitions have been completed," said Su ruomin, a strong woman. "At dawn tomorrow, Jin''s group will rewrite them all at your will." The man didn''t move or speak, but his eyes narrowed slightly, and a faint cold light burst from the bottom of his eyes. Su ruomin didn''t continue or leave. She just looked at the man and waited. This man was found by the old man ten years ago. It took five years to stand firm in the Jin family, and another five years to eliminate dissidents. He defeated Jin Shaoteng, the most likely successor of the Jin family, and sat in the highest position of the Jin family. All the men will pass the river and mountain tonight. "Ten years ago," Jin shaosi said slowly, with a faint voice, "when I left her, I told her that one day, I would stand in front of her in a way that suits her identity..." Jin shaosi narrowed his eyes slightly, lowered his eyes, and crossed his eyes with a feeling of pain and joy, "Yining, will you be happy to meet you ten years later?" Chapter 1247 Time passes day by day. The incident of Li Yunze''s girlfriend was traced by paparazzi from all walks of life until the end of the concert. It was found that it was an oolong. Not to mention that Li Yunze didn''t even watch he Siyu''s concert. Even dream media didn''t hype the things between the two people. The most important thing is that China entertainment media, which has always been the most gossip, is not interested in this matter, which makes many people in the industry see the signs False news! "For a long time, it''s fake!" With hot and sour rice noodles in his hand, Fang Zihan ate and make complaints about the food. Since taking the no return path of paparazzi, her life image has been lost several kilometers away. Eating while walking like this can keep the soup from splashing out. It''s definitely her skill. After the last mouthful of soup, Fang Zihan threw the box away and took his mobile phone out to read the memo. In addition to following Li Yunze for personal gain, she has to follow Lu man''s line recently. No matter which one she catches, it''s big news. However, Lu man''s focus now is not in Los Angeles, and he is basically developing abroad... Fang Zihan wondered how much credit Gu Beichen has given to this. Gu Beichen used to be warm and sunny, just like prince charming. How to take over the emperor and empress becomes cold and bloodthirsty... Fang Zihan can''t understand this. Fang Zihan received his mobile phone and thought that the time was still there anyway. He simply took a bus to Shuya hospital to find he Yining. He Yining was making a succession record. Seeing Fang Zihan coming, he said hello and asked, "Why are you here?" "Just after following one, I happened to be nearby, so I came to find you..." Fang Zihan sat down at his desk, leaned over the table, looked around at other people in the office, and whispered, "Yining, internal news, he Siyu and Li Yunze have no relationship." "Yes." He Yining answered softly. Seeing that she didn''t feel excited at all, Fang Zihan was dissatisfied. "I said, can''t you give some response?" "Wait a minute..." why did Ning continue to write the succession record without raising his head? After writing it, he looked up at Fang Zihan with a boring face. Obviously, his heart was surging, but he pretended to be calm and said, "that night, he called me." "Well?" Fang Zihan''s gossip eyes'' Teng ''lit up at once, "unexpectedly, there is an adultery I don''t know?" He Zihan said something to her that night "I can''t figure it out these days..." why would I rather hold my cheek? "You said, what did he mean that night?" "Hey, if you don''t care, explain it to you?" Fang Zihan leaned forward again, "Yining, do you think he actually has an idea for you?" "What do you think?" He Yining asked seriously. "There are talents and ghosts!" Fang Zihan shrunk back, "I just want to see if you are too fanciful. If he really has any ideas about you, he will not be so indifferent these days." "..." why did Ning twitch at the corners of his mouth. See, she can''t even hypnotize herself Even Zihan didn''t believe Li Yunze was explaining it to her. It''s estimated that I was angry to see her text message. Why should I rather sigh and say, "if I don''t, I won''t. anyway, I dream more and I''m not afraid to do it more times." "Are you going to be on duty today?" Fang Zihan asked. "Well, I asked Yan Yan to pick it up one by one." "What do you have for dinner? Shall I buy it for you?" Fang Zihan looked at the time. "You go and be busy. I''ll eat in the hospital later." He Yining knows that Fang Zihan is cheating with a star recently. They all act at night. "OK, I''ll go first." "Yes." After he Yining sent Fang Zihan out, he went to the nurse station to get the cases of patients to be concerned about in the evening. "Dr. he," said a nurse after answering the phone, "the vice president asked you to go and find him." He Yining was surprised, "en!" She put down her case card and turned to the vice president''s office. "Vice President..." "Sit down!" The vice president motioned. After dealing with the matter at hand, he said, "I saw the research video returned from the Research Institute." "Yes." He Yining waited for the vice president to continue. "There''s a shortage of people in the chest and lungs recently. I saw the video of you being Li Yunze''s second deputy. You''re very skilled..." the vice president didn''t beat around the Bush, "are you willing to transfer?" Why rather frown slightly. "The examination of transferring to another department in the same hospital is also relatively simple. According to the grade, there is also a commission for entering the operating room..." the vice president said, "you practice in our hospital, come back after studying in the East China Sea, abandon Huakang and come to Shuya. You can''t just stay outside the general public?" "I''m going to transfer..." he Yining said. Seeing the happiness of expectation on the vice president''s face, she couldn''t bear to beat him. "But I''m going to transfer to obstetrics and gynecology." "..." the vice president looked at he Yining with astonishment. In that way, I can''t imagine why I''d rather go to obstetrics and Gynecology "Is the transfer to obstetrics and Gynecology a little far away?" The vice president frowned. He Yining smiled. "I will go according to the normal transfer examination. Although I choose surgery for internship and later, my real interest is obstetrics and gynecology." "..." the vice president frowned, "anyway, it''s not for a while. You should think about it again!" After a pause, "if you change your mind and want to change your mind, you can come to me directly." "OK." He Yining got up, "thank the vice president for taking care of him." The vice president nodded and signaled why Yining should go first. He Yining left the vice president''s office and went back to surgery. In fact, her decision to transfer to obstetrics and gynecology is somewhat capricious Because only this department is not involved by Li Yunze... If she wants to be a little tough academically, she can only choose this department. ¡­¡­ Paradise night. After Linnan got better, he asked Li Yunze and Gu Beichen out to drink. The last time he fell in Li Yunze''s office, after Li Yunze finished the operation for him, old Lin turned Lin south to the military general hospital. At the moment, I said I was about to drink. In fact, I was curious about Gu Beichen''s son Of course, Li Yunze is also curious. Knowing that Jian Mo''s son is Gu Beichen, it has been ten days, but none of them have a chance to see them as brothers. At first, Jian Mo didn''t agree with Gu Beichen''s pursuit again, but now they all agree. I have to meet him. Unfortunately, Li Yunze and Lin Nannan were disappointed when they saw that only Gu Beichen and Jian Mo came in and there was no legendary Zhengtai. "Third brother, third sister-in-law, can''t your child be invisible?" Lin Nannan is dissatisfied. Li Yunze was speechless, "don''t you just have a son, as for hiding?" Jian Mo just wanted to explain, so he listened to Gu Beichen''s indifferent mouth: "the problem is that I have a son..." he looked at Li Yunze proudly from the bottom of his eyes, "you have one if you have the ability!" Li Yunze rolled his eyes, although he just told Lin Nannan that Beichen might not bring his son Can think of return to think of, quarrel return to quarrel, hear Gu Beichen such a roar, Li Yunze''s spirit is not smooth. "No, no, no, I don''t have a son!" Li Yunze said solemnly, "how can I get a daughter and harm your son..." Chapter 1248 "..." Jane Mo heard this, and the corners of her mouth twitched uncontrollably. "Think about it!" Li Yunze suddenly thought his idea was very good. "Should Beichen be handed over to his son after the emperor? This boy is used to conquer the world. Later, my daughter conquered your son, which is equivalent to conquering the world... How beautiful?!" "..." Jane Mo burst out laughing, "what you said makes sense. I can''t help but give you 32 compliments." "Must!" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "The second brother''s idea is appropriate..." Lin thought to the south. "Do I also turn back to have a daughter and become a rival in love with the second brother''s daughter?!" Jane Mo looked at the two big men''s serious idea of making milk bags, and her heart collapsed. However, President Gu obviously needs to calm down a lot. "It''s the same as true..." Gu Beichen opened the wine. "Two people who don''t even have women say what to have a daughter to conquer my son?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Lin Nan and Li Yunze twitched at the corners of their mouths. Suddenly, their anger was gone. There''s no way. Neither of them has children. Gu Beichen now has not only a wife, but also a son. Li Yunze shook the wine glass in his hand at will. Once again, he inexplicably thought of he Yining. If He and he Yining are together. The child is bigger than Beichen''s, and it''s impossible for him to block himself. wait! Li Yunze immediately frowned. What was he thinking? I even thought of being with he Yining and having children What the hell? Li Yunze raised his glass and poured the wine in the cup into his mouth at one breath, but the breath was not smooth, but it was more and more blocked. ¡­¡­ "The plane will arrive at Los Angeles International Airport in half an hour..." In the plane, there was a sweet voice. Jin shaosi slightly tilted his head and looked out of the small window. In the dark, there was an arc of light in the distance. I haven''t stepped into this place for ten years, and I haven''t heard from her for ten years From nothing to standing firm in the Jin family, until now he has become the leader of the Jin family. Only Jin shaosi himself knows what he has experienced. "Boss," Su ruomin looked at the time, "after landing, do you go back to the hotel to rest first or go to the Wine Manor first?" "Go back to the hotel first." Jin shaosi looked back and said. "OK!" Su ruomin answered and said to Lu fan, the bodyguard and driver of Jin shaosi, "after landing, I will deal with some business matters of the company. I have arranged the car in the airport parking lot and go to the deposit office to get the key." "OK." Lu Fan answered. Su ruomin finished explaining and didn''t speak again. Boss likes to be quiet. He doesn''t like it if it''s not necessary. After taxiing, the plane stopped at Los Angeles International Airport. In ten years, many things have changed... Including Los Angeles Airport! Before coming, Lu Fan had thoroughly studied the roads of Los Angeles. Although he came here for the first time, he could not see any strange people driving directly to the Los Angeles hotel. Jin shaosi stood in front of the window of the supreme suite, overlooking the prosperity of downtown Los Angeles, and gradually deepened his sight. "Yining, I''m gone. Will you miss me?" As a teenager, Jin shaosi asked, looking at he Yining, who was full of tenacity in the sun. "Of course!" He Yining came forward with a smile and hugged Jin shaosi, "ah Si, bless you!" "Yining, I will come back..." Jin shaosi looked at he Yining and said seriously, "you wait for me!" Why Ning was stunned. Although he didn''t quite understand what ace meant, he still nodded with a smile. As an orphan, he and his mother came to Ho''s house to work when he was very young. Because he was born with a keen taste for wine, he Yining''s father, he Tianshu, cultivated him very well after his mother''s death Later, the 17-year-old ace didn''t know why and suddenly left his home. He didn''t say why, and he Yining didn''t ask. After all, everyone has his own aspirations. Maybe it was not that she didn''t want to ask at that time, but all her thoughts were spent on Li Yunze He Yining doesn''t know why he suddenly thinks of ASI, who is tall and thin but shows a spirit of not admitting defeat. Xu is In today''s ward, there happened to be a man named as ASI, who also had similar experience, which reminded her of him. Why did Ning leave the hospital after finishing the night shift and explaining several patients to pay attention to with the doctor who came to take over the shift. She went to the supermarket to buy some vegetables home before she planned to pick them up one by one from yanmiao. Why did Ning leave the community? She didn''t take a taxi and went to the bus station in front of her From beginning to end, I didn''t see a Bentley moushan parked on the roadside of the community. Looking at her through the window ten years ago, he Chaoning is full of mature charm. "Boss," Lu Fan handed the paper printed by the car fax to Jin shaosi in the back seat, "because the time is too tight, I can find these for the time being." Jin shaosi took over, but kept looking at he Yining until her body was hidden by the crowd. In the third year of his departure, the he family burst out with hidden problems because he Tianshu and his wife Meng Ya had an accident. Ho''s Chateau has been unable to make ends meet and even has a lot of loans, so that his scenery has become a bubble and burst instantly. The winery was closed down and the vineyard was auctioned. He Yining took nothing with him except a few clothes and some photos Jin shaosi can''t imagine how he Yining faced the sudden changes. Even, he didn''t know how a daughter like her faced a life without anything. A touch of heartache crossed his heart. Jin shaosi looked at the old family area on one side and frowned slightly. Taking back his sight, Jin shaosi dialed Su ruomin''s phone, "with the fastest speed, I want to buy his winery and vineyard." "Yes, boss!" Su min was not surprised. Jin shaosi hung up the phone, looked at the fax paper in his hand, and folded it into the car''s built-in bag. "Boss, do you need to follow?" Lu fan asked after seeing why Ning got on the bus. "Yes." Jin shaosi answered softly with a low voice. Bentley follows the bus slowly and stops at an unobtrusive speed. It takes skill. As a professionally trained bodyguard, this is no difficulty for Lu Fan. Lu Fan looked at why Yining, turned and entered a path, frowned slightly and said, "boss, the car in front is hard to drive in..." "You wait here." Jin shaosi said that the man had opened the door and got off. He followed he Yining slowly and looked at her back. Today, ten years later, it is a kind of happiness that fills his heart However, at the moment, shaosi Jin, with a light smile in his mouth, never thought that it would be a great "surprise" to meet him! Chapter 1249 In yanmiao''s home, one by one, he is staring at a pair of big eyes and looking at yanmiao tossing in the kitchen. "Aunt Yanyan, I don''t think you can handle it!" One by one, said the one who didn''t give face. "Who said, I can take a scalpel, and I can''t make a kitchen knife?" Yan Miao said proudly, "don''t worry, I can handle it." One by one tooted his mouth, "but this is not to fix the kitchen knife, but you can''t fix the fish..." One by one, he looked at the living fish in the pool, and his little face was completely written "don''t believe". "My scalpel can give people a knife, and I can''t move a fish..." yanmiao gritted his teeth to catch the fish, with a momentum of never giving up until it''s done. Blinked one by one. It was obvious that yanmiao couldn''t agree with her statement that she could handle the fish because she could operate. Just in time, the doorbell rings "It must be mom!" One by one, his eyes'' rubbed ''and his small body hurried to the door. But even if I was looking forward to it, I still pasted it on the door one by one and knocked on the door first. He Yining knocked back twice and said, "one by one, it''s mom!" One by one immediately opened the door with joy At the same time, yanmiao also came out. "It''s smart to ask one by one." Yanmiao praised them one by one. "Mom said, you can''t open the door casually..." he Yining was scratched one by one, and his small face kept rubbing. In the past, when I was in the East China Sea, why would I rather have a nanny at home to take care of one by one But he Yining would explain to me one by one before going out every time. He couldn''t open the door casually. He Yining looked at yanmiao''s two hands, wet on his apron and frowned slightly, "what are you doing?" "Aunt Yan has just taken me to the market to buy a fish and make complaints about it." one by one, he opened his mouth first, and his face was wrinkled. He said, "now, the fish is still alive!" "..." yanmiao rolled his eyes and expressed dissatisfaction. He Yining smiled, "why didn''t you let me kill you when you bought it?" "Forgot to say," Yan Miao shrugged. "When he came back, he found that he was alive!" He Yining put down one by one and went to the kitchen, "I''ll get it!" With that, she skillfully picked up the fish in the pool, took the knife and patted directly on the fish''s head! "..." Yan Miao looked at the motionless fish and twitched at the corners of his mouth, "it''s really... Simple and rough!" He Yining proudly shook his head and killed a fish skillfully and quickly. Yanmiao leaned against the door and looked at he Yining''s action. The joke began to become sour. Is this the same old lady who can''t do any housework and has servants in everything? Not long ago Now Yining has to go up to the hall and down to the kitchen. Because she has no dependence, she must be able to do everything to take care of herself and one by one at the same time. One by one, when he drank the delicious fish soup, he vigorously praised he Yining in front of yanmiao. Naturally, he should also dislike yanmiao. After drinking fish soup, he Yining took them one by one and prepared to go home. "Aunt Yanyan, bye..." "Bye!" Yanmiao sent he Yining and went out of the door one by one. After watching the two people enter the elevator, he returned to the house with a slight sigh. However, at the moment when the door was closed, yanmiao was particularly unhappy. I don''t know if the nerve line is wrong, or it''s too sad to think of why Yining now. Yanmiao took his mobile phone and sent a text message to Li Yunze: Li Yunze, I really want to know why you hate Yining? After the message was sent, no one replied. Of course, yanmiao didn''t expect Li Yunze to reply to her. Yu Gong, they are colleagues and the relationship between the boss and his subordinates. Yu private... Li Yunze doesn''t like to get too close to yanmiao because of he Yining''s relationship. Yanmiao threw his mobile phone aside in some anger, took the medical book and began to pass the time ¡­¡­ After he Yining went upstairs, Jin shaosi waited outside all the time. He sat in a small pavilion not far from one side, but he could see the entrance of the building clearly. Xu Shi hasn''t seen him for a long time. When he meets again, everything is right and wrong. He suddenly doesn''t know what kind of identity he should use to appear in front of he Yining. Instead, he hesitates and shows a agitation like adolescence. Jin shaosi drooped his eyes and smiled. During his years in the Jin family, he was about to forget such ignorant emotions. Jin shaosi sighed and looked at the time. He had been waiting downstairs for nearly two hours. Lift your eyes The line of sight crossed the entrance of the building and saw that the door was opened. Why did Ning come out. The bottom of Jin shaosi''s eyes suddenly burst into a happy mood, but it was only a moment, just because why Ning pushed the door and waited for the little figure to come out and freeze there. Why would you rather hold one by one''s hand and listen to one by one beat around the Bush saying that I hope I can go to the aquarium tomorrow? I couldn''t help laughing. I don''t know if the little girl has a lot of thoughts. When she has any ideas one by one, she always doesn''t say it directly, then let you take the initiative to put it forward, and finally return it... See, I''m actually trying not to refute your face. "I''m working in the afternoon tomorrow. Why don''t we go now?" He Yining suggested. "But mom just finished the night shift. She''s very tired!" "I didn''t sleep in the duty room last night..." "Really?" "Yes!" One by one, he looked up at he Yining. Xu felt that she was not lying, so he nodded happily, and then took he Yining''s hand and "ran" outside the community. Jin shaosi looked at the familiar face one by one. For a moment, he didn''t know how to react. When he reacted, he Yining and 11 had missed his far position He almost instinctively chased him, but he still kept a certain distance. He was deeply afraid that his sudden appearance would be too abrupt. He Yining didn''t leave from the path just now, but went to the subway station from the other side. In this way, Jin shaosi followed he Yining all the time. When he saw a large and a small man enter the ocean park, his whole face was resistant. Why prefer Li Yunze? It''s no secret for people who know two people. He was the one who watched Yining chase Li Yunze and was rejected countless times. Li Yunze of that year could not see Yining''s good at any time. In his eyes, he would only see Qu Weiwei. For so many years, he firmly believed that Yining would not be with Li Yunze, and even thought that Li Yunze would bring her harm, and she could not come out so soon So he came back. But what does he see now? Yining and Li Yunze''s daughter?! Chapter 1250 When Lu Fan drove to pick up Jin shaosi, he saw him standing on the roadside alone, with an expression of unspeakable complex emotions. The car stopped beside him. Jin shaosi got on the car with a tight face, "thoroughly check the situation of why Ning in recent years." Lu Fan looked at Jin shaosi from the rearview mirror and answered, "yes!" Paused, "boss, where are you going now?" Jin shaosi tilted his head and looked at the place of Ocean Park, gradually deepening his eyes. Lu Fan waited quietly. After a while, he heard Jin shaosi speak indifferently: "go back to the hotel first." "Yes!" Lu Fan responded and started the car in the direction of the hotel. A dignified atmosphere filled the car, gradually condensing the surrounding air. After the bus arrived at the Los Angeles Hotel, Jin shaosi got off the bus and took out his mobile phone to call Su ruomin, "where is it?" "Ten minutes to the hotel." Su ruomin said skillfully. "Find me in the western restaurant." Jin shaosi hung up the phone while his words fell. He went to the western restaurant and sat next to the window. He looked at the increasingly prosperous city of Los Angeles ten years later and gradually deepened his eyes. When Su ruomin arrived at the hotel, she went straight to the western restaurant. The waiter just opened a bottle of red wine and poured a glass for Jin shaosi and Su ruomin respectively. "It''s difficult for the winery to win now," Su ruomin said. "I have contacted the owner of the vineyard, and the other party intends to sell..." he paused. "But I''m afraid the other party is not an expert. Over the years, the vineyard has not been well taken care of, and it has become a leisure vacation village." Su ruomin said it politely. In fact, the other party didn''t plant it as a vineyard at all. Jin shaosi frowned slightly, and a pair of dark eyes, which had been due to the existence of one by one, became more and more familiar. "At the winery, I will take it as soon as possible after reassessment." Su ruomin said. "Yes." Jin shaosi answered faintly. He grabbed the red wine glass with his fingers and shook it gently. He looked at the wall hanging and gradually lost his mind. The winery and vineyard are the memories of his company with Yining. These two places... He must take them back. Su ruomin felt that Jin shaosi was in a bad mood. "Boss, is it not smooth to see miss he?" Jin shaosi took a sip of red wine, tasted it slightly and swallowed it slowly. Putting down the glass, he motioned to the waiter and said without answering, "eat first." "Yes!" If Jin Rumin didn''t answer, he wouldn''t go any more. However, she soon learned that Jin shaosi was unhappy because he Yining had children. Looking at the information from the investigation, Jin shaosi gradually deepened his eyes The child belongs to Li Yunze, but Li Yunze doesn''t know the existence of he Xinyao. Yining, in order to love him, you are even willing to do so?! Jin shaosi''s hand holding the data gradually tightened, and his face was shrouded in layers of haze, as if to devour everything ¡­¡­ Li Jiyuan looked at some Chinese herbal medicines he planted from the backyard and returned to the villa. He saw Li Yunze staring at his mobile phone. Aunt Qiao made tea, "sir." Li Jiyuan walked over, "what''s the matter with Yunze?" Aunt Qiao looked at Li Yunze sitting on the sofa and shook her head. "Master Ze has been like this for a long time. I just finished cleaning up upstairs and saw him looking at his mobile phone motionless. It''s been busy for a long time, and so on." Li Jiyuan sat down, drinking tea and watching Li Yunze. After a while, he sighed secretly. Jinxi is also married, but this son has no intention of making a girlfriend now. He is worried for him Li Yunze moved the screen just when the mobile phone was about to go dark. He looked at the text message sent to him by yanmiao. For a long time, he didn''t know how to answer this question. I don''t know how long it will take. After all, he replied: there''s no reason! When yanmiao received the text message, he directly scolded "go to death". But after scolding, yanmiao suddenly laughed again "Yining and Li Yunze are really a pair of enemies who love and kill each other." Yan Miao sighed and shook his head, "there is no reason for someone to like, and there is no reason for someone to hate..." ¡­¡­ Monday. After he Yining sent them to the kindergarten one by one, he went to the hospital. After a busy morning, the director told he Yining that she would be on duty 24 hours from the beginning of this week. Why not be surprised? She has been back for some time. After the work is officially on track, she will also start to be on duty. It doesn''t matter to be on duty. It''s just that it''s not so convenient for her to take care of one by one. Why would you rather think about finding a nanny or directly hosting the school Find a nanny. If you can''t meet a good one, he Yining is worried about what will happen. School trusteeship, that is, you can only see one by one on weekends Either way, he Yining is a little tangled at the moment. "Doctor he..." a nurse came into the office and shouted he Yining, "we''re going to the beef noodle restaurant next to the hospital. Would you like to join us?" "OK." Why should Ning answer the voice? Looking at Song Tianye, who is still writing medical records, he asked, "Tianye, do you want to join us?" "I won''t go there. Let them bring it to me from the canteen..." Song Tianye doesn''t look up. "This medical case will be handed over to the director later. I don''t have time." "OK!" Why should Ning answer the voice and leave the hospital with the nurse. Several girls were talking and laughing about the gossip of the hospital as they walked out. "Another intern is coming soon," said the nurse with a headache. "I''m afraid to meet a doctor like last year who can''t handle a drainage bag... I don''t know how such a person can stay in medical school." "That kind is mixed at a glance..." "People like that shouldn''t be doctors, harming others and themselves!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± He Yining listened to their voice of Tucao, make complaints about laughing. Think about yourself. When I first entered medical school, I was scolded like this?! "Hey, there''s a handsome man!" "Where?" "Coming towards us..." He Yining''s thoughts were guided by several nurses and subconsciously looked at the place they glanced at. I saw a man, wearing dark blue suit pants and water blue shirt with dark lines, coming over. His shirt sleeve was rolled up to his elbow, showing a sense of defiance. Several nurses were openly ''whispering'' and couldn''t bear to jump when they saw the man coming. Jin shaosi stopped three or four steps in front of several women and stared deeply at he Yining. He didn''t speak, just waiting Several nurses found that he had been looking at he Yining, and one of them was curious. She asked, "doctor he, do you know him?" He Yining felt familiar. She frowned slightly and looked up at Jin shaosi''s arrogant sight. She suddenly flashed something in her mind and widened her eyes, "ah Si?!" Jin shaosi lowered his eyes and smiled. When he raised his eyes again, he looked at he Yining and said, "fortunately, you can recognize me..." "Ace, is it really you?!" Why did nington have a friend who had been away for a long time? Excited by the unexpected meeting, he came forward and hugged major Jin. "Hey?" Suddenly, a nurse met the next person and motioned to the hospital office building, "Li Shao!" The nurse looked at it curiously Li Yunze and the president of Shuya hospital are standing on the steps at the door of the office building. Their sight... Seems to fall in their direction?! Chapter 1251 As soon as Li Yunze came out of the office building, he just saw why Ning flying towards a man With an excited smile on her face, she looked like a girl who saw the light of her beloved man in the sun. Li Yunze''s mouth was filled with a sneer. He Yining jumped happily with Jin shaosi in his arms, and his eyes were a little dark. "Li Shao?" The Dean was surprised to see that Li Yunze suddenly didn''t go. He looked down Li Yunze''s line of sight He saw why he was embracing a man and frowning slightly. At the moment, although he Yining is not wearing a white coat, he is also a comfortable medical staff. What''s the matter? The most important thing is that Li Yunze also saw People want face. The Dean naturally doesn''t want to expose his "randomness" in front of figures like Li Yunze. "Dean Ma, is this your hospital?" Li Yunze asked clearly. Ma Guangming immediately felt that he couldn''t hang his old face. He pulled the corners of his mouth awkwardly. Just when he wanted to talk, he saw Li Yunze walking up to the parking place He hurried to follow him, arrived, and looked at him. From beginning to end, he didn''t know why Li Yunze had put on his little shoes. Li Yunze couldn''t help looking in the direction of he Yining In public, holding a man, why would you rather be so big? It turns out that you are still so brave and open! Thinking, Li Yunze''s eyes were more heavy. His mind began to echo why he would rather write a love letter, what he thought of you, and what he could give up his life. Is that the man? Hum, apart from being tall and straight, I''m also a scum in clothes! Ma Guangming hurriedly followed Li Yunze''s meteoric pace. Because his legs were not as long as Li Yunze''s short board, he almost had to trot to keep up. Ma Guangming began to sweat on his forehead. He didn''t know whether it was hot or something? He was a little worried and thought that Li Yunze would not think that the medical staff of Shuya hospital were not formal and some were too frivolous because of what he had just seen. Did he let go of his cooperation before? Huakang is not only a hospital, but also the largest pharmaceutical factory in China. Many of the specific drugs they have studied are basically only for Huakang It''s not easy to hear that several models will be delegated to some third-class hospitals. Shuya has been very active for this. Ma Guangming thought more and more urgently, for fear that he would rather disturb this matter. "Li Shao..." when Ma Guangming sent Li Yunze to the car, he grinned and said hard, "I hope Li Shao will give more consideration to the cooperation between Shuya and Huakang pharmaceutical." Li Yunze opened the door and turned his head. His sight suddenly fell in the direction of he Yining. He Yining had already let go of Jin shaosi, but this time he smiled and circled his arm! Li Yunze''s face became darker. Ma Guangming also saw why he Ning, gnashing his teeth angrily, but now he can only accompany a smiling face. "It seems to be a very communicative means..." Li Yunze looked back indifferently. "Maybe it would be easier for President Ma to talk to her?!" Li Yunze said, his sight crossed Ma Guangming, and then got on the car. Ma Guangming watched Li Yunze''s car leave with an arrogant voice and grinned secretly "Was that remark made by Li Shao just now serious or sarcastic?" Ma Guangming murmured to himself, unable to figure it out. When I looked at Xiang Yining again, I saw her holding the man''s arm and walking outside the hospital with several women who came out together Ma Guangming''s heart at this moment is gloomy. "I don''t know why Li Shao came to our hospital?" A nurse whispered, "look at the dog leg of our dean just now, tut tut!" "There''s no way. Who can make the Li family''s position in the medical field surpass?!" The older nurse shrugged. "I''m a golden man, but I''m afraid I''m less of myself. Naturally, I''m forced to coax." "I really envy Dr. he. Previous academic research can be in close contact with Li Shao..." the little nurse looked envious. "You should not learn nursing at first, you should learn medicine, and make complaints about Li and Xiao." The little nurse leaned down and looked at the arm surrounded by Jin shaosi. He Yining, who was happy because of the reunion after a long separation, sighed, "forget it, I still know myself... I don''t have the beauty of doctor he or her ability. I''d better do my nursing well." Several women chatted first in the back. He Yining and Jin shaosi also talked all the time. From beginning to end, she didn''t know Li Yunze had appeared Naturally, I didn''t know that Li Yunze saw her holding Jin shaosi. But Jin shaosi is different. He saw Li Yunze, and even, from a man''s point of view, he felt the coldness of Li Yunze before and now. "Will you come back this time?" He Yining asked. "Don''t go for the time being..." Jin shaosi said, "I will deal with some things." He Yining smiled and nodded happily, "then we can get together well..." paused, "how did you know I was here?" "I went back to the winery," Jin shaosi saw a touch of astringency across the bottom of he Yining''s eyes, but he quickly converged, and couldn''t help feeling distressed. "I knew what happened to he family... Then I asked someone to find you." "Oh!" Why should Ning answer the voice, "yes, after you left for a while, he family fell down..." He Yining said easily, but Jin shaosi obviously felt that the hand around his arm was a little stiff. "You know, I''m not interested in wine." Why rather shrug, "my father said, let me taste wine, it''s better to give me a bottle of coke." He paused. "My father was most optimistic about you at that time. He said you had a tongue that was born to taste wine." Speaking of the past, although it is astringent, it is also happy. For he Yining, there are no relatives except one by one now However, when Jin shaosi appeared, she seemed to have an unexpected family member. Because he Yining had to go to work, Jin shaosi and several people still went to the beef noodle restaurant together. "What time do you get off work in the evening?" Jin shaosi asked, "I''ll pick you up." "I don''t have time at night..." he Yining said. She has to pick up one after work. Jin shaosi is not surprised. After all, the information in his hand has actually reached the basic life track of why Ning every day. "When are you free, come out and sit down?" Jin shaosi looked at he Yining with evil eyes. He Yining thought, "I''ll call you according to the situation these days..." said, she took out her mobile phone, asked Jin shaosi''s number, and then dialed, "where will you live when you come back?" "Hotel..." Jin shaosi said. Seeing he Yining''s voice, he couldn''t help crying and laughing, "I thought you would invite me to stay with you after I finished speaking!" Chapter 1252 Why Ning was stunned, then turned her lips and said, "I''m sorry, I''m single now and I''m not suitable to live with a man." "..." Jin shaosi listened and smiled. This is the woman he loves. She usually looks like she''s not afraid of heaven and earth, but she''s cleaner than anyone Except when facing Li Yunze. Thinking of Li Yunze, Jin shaosi''s eyes darkened. When thinking of he Xinyao again, Jin shaosi''s heart tightened suddenly. Feeling the breath that filled Jin shaosi''s body, why would you rather ''suck away'' and ask him blurtly: "ah Si, no, I won''t let you live with me, so you''ve been severely hit by 10000 points!" Jin shaosi raised his eyes and looked at why Yining''s look of ''if you''re angry, I won''t coax you'', and his eyes gradually deepened. If you put aside everything and don''t think about it, isn''t he Yining the way he looked when he left? "It''s estimated that you won''t coax me, so I decided not to be sad..." Jin shaosi said with a smile. He Yining nodded, "tut Tut, I haven''t seen you for ten years. The Duan position is high!" If he Yining had teased Jin shaosi like this before, he would have turned around and left However, ace will not be angry with her for a long time. As long as she pesters him, he will dispel his anger even if he is uncomfortable. He Yining suddenly remembered the past, with a brilliant smile on his mouth, showing the beauty of purity. Jin shaosi is a little crazy. If the environment is not suitable, I''m afraid he can keep looking like this He Yining returned to his mind because of the noisy voice around him. He pulled the corners of his mouth awkwardly and continued to eat noodles with his eyes down. Ten years, everything has changed. The person in front of him, although she didn''t ask him what he was doing now, she was also very clear that all his clothes were custom-made, which was not cheap. Ace is no longer a worker in Ho''s vineyard and a wine tasting apprentice in the winery And now she is not the daughter of any family. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze looked at the traffic jam for a long time because of the red light, and was a little annoyed. He opened the window, put his arm on the door and pulled his tie at will. There was a layer of haze on junxie''s face. "Didi... Didi..." The green light was on, but the car in front didn''t move. Li Yunze sounded the horn more and more irritably. The car in front was obviously a novice. It couldn''t start. It was very anxious. It was frightened by Li Yunze''s horn and directly stalled. Li Yunze''s face became more heavy. He looked at the green light that was coming to an end. He hit the steering wheel impatiently and wanted to insert into one side of the driveway. Who knew there was a car in the back that wanted to insert into the driveway, but the technology was obviously not very good. Seeing Li Yunze''s car suddenly hit the direction and didn''t stop at once, I heard a bang. Li Yunze''s face sank and felt the body shake. The whole person was not well. The other party was obviously stunned, especially when he saw Li Yunze driving Ferrari FF, his whole face turned white. More than 200000 cars hit millions of other people''s cars, and the driver is almost crying Li Yunze opened the window and motioned the man to the roadside. "Well, I''m sorry..." the driver looked at the groove on Ferrari without tears. "I... the money for car repair, can I pay in installments?" Seeing that the man had a good attitude, Li Yunze thought that he had just suddenly changed lanes and didn''t turn, "I''m also wrong, but your driving skills are on the road. I suggest you don''t change lanes casually in the future..." "Yes, yes, yes!" The driver nodded hurriedly and wondered whether he would sell the car in order to repair the groove of Ferrari. Li Yunze saw the man''s distressed appearance and wanted to say something, but the words came to his mouth. He had a headache and left a sentence "drive carefully in the future". Under the daze of the driver, he drove away "Er..." the driver looked confused and forced, "what''s the situation? Just ''educate'' me?" When he saw Ferrari gone, his heart fell back to his chest, "the rich are not arrogant and domineering!" Li Yunze drove directly to the garage, put the car there, took a taxi and went directly back to the hospital. He suddenly found himself a little sad. Except for occasionally getting together with Gu Beichen and them, his current life is just two points and one line. Home, and hospital! Oh, I sometimes go to the pharmaceutical factory Li Yunze felt a little empty in his heart. As soon as such emotion spread, his mind was full of why he was holding a man in the public. When I was a child, I didn''t have a face. When I was so big, I still took the initiative to chase a man! Li Yunze secretly make complaints about it, and his heart is more and more blocked up. But he didn''t think about why it was so blocked The more he thinks about it, the more upset he gets! But the more irritable, the more in my mind why I would rather smile brightly at the man ¡­¡­ After dinner, he Yining said goodbye to Jin shaosi and went back to the hospital with several nurses. "Doctor he, who is that man?" There is a nurse flower maniac, "looks so young and stylish!" "Friends who grew up together before..." "Childhood sweetheart!" Someone answered immediately. Why would you rather turn your eyes, "childhood sweetheart? It roughly means that you have no guess, but you have some feelings that you shouldn''t have... What about me and ace? That''s a good friend!" He Yining thought that she should be childhood sweethearts with Li Yunze Although she is wishful thinking! "I never believe that there is so-called brotherhood and pure friendship between men and women." "Agree!" "Same!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± He Yining looked at several people and said seriously, "but ASI and I are really pure..." Several nurses looked at each other, sighed and shook their heads. He Yining frowned and looked at everyone as if they didn''t believe it at all, saying that he was depressed. After returning to surgery, they began to be busy. At noon, unless there is an emergency or emergency, there is generally nothing to do. When he Yining returned to the office, song Tianye was eating a box lunch while checking his report. "Yining," Song Tianye looks at he Yining. "The person from the dean''s office just called and told you to go to the dean at two o''clock." He Yining frowned and looked at the time when he answered the voice. It was past one thirty "I''ll go and have a look." He Yining thought that the Dean also talked to her about the transfer, and didn''t care. "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." Why would you rather push the door and enter, "Dean, are you looking for me?" Ma Guangming looked at he Yining, who was already wearing a white coat. He was just full of girls. Now he looked very steady in a white coat. "The hospital needs to get some new drugs recently, which are basically needed by surgery..." Ma Guangming said. "The hospital plans to find someone from your department to talk to the people in the pharmaceutical factory." "Does the Dean mean to let me go?" He Yining was a little surprised. "Yes!" Why rather wring his eyebrows, "isn''t it all the business of the pharmaceutical department?" Ma Guangming''s face sank. "You go with the pharmacy department, because it''s several special drugs, and you need the doctor of the Department to accompany you..." Now, why should I be more confused. Even with the accompanying doctor, why shouldn''t it be her?! "OK..." since the Dean came to her directly, he Yining felt that there was no room for rejection. "Which pharmaceutical factory is it? When to negotiate?" "Huakang..." Chapter 1253 "Where?" Why Ning suddenly widened his eyes. Ma Guangming looked dissatisfied, "Huakang pharmaceutical is the one under Huakang Hospital..." "...." he Yining immediately suffered, "Dean, can I regret my refusal?!" Ma Guangming''s face sank. "What do you think, doctor he?" Why should I droop my shoulders? The whole person is not good. Although she wants to have some contact with Li Yunze, she doesn''t want to be in this regard! "Didn''t you have contact with Li Yunze for this academic exchange?" Ma Guangming said, "not many people can keep up with Li Shao''s operation... He should still have an impression of you. It should be better for you to go." After seeing Li Yunze off, Ma Guangming returned to the office and remembered who he Yining was? Before, the vice president recommended to him that she had a good operation and wanted to recommend internal conversion to cardiothoracic and pulmonary surgery. No wonder Li Yunze looked so strange at that time. He had known each other for a long time Although he still couldn''t figure it out, Li Yunze asked he Yining to talk about whether it was ironic or true! However, Shuya''s competition this time was only 30% to 40%. Why should he rather go there? He can only be a dead horse as a living horse doctor. He Yining is a little depressed. She really didn''t think that a surgical assistant could bring her so much trouble "When..." he asked rather dully. "Tomorrow, you and the person in charge of the pharmaceutical department will go to Huakang and talk with Li Shaoxian..." Ma Guangming said, "if you can get the introduction of drugs this time, it will be of great benefit to Shuya and patients... Doctor he, do you understand?" He Yining wanted to say "I don''t understand" angrily, but with a sense of responsibility, she also knew what the introduction of Huakang pharmaceutical represented?! "I see..." why did you nod your lower lip. After Ma Guangming "en" gave a voice, he Yining indicated that he Yining should be busy first. Why Ning went out of the dean''s office, shook his hands, grinned and endured, and then returned to the Department angrily. "What''s the matter?" Seeing why Yining''s murderous appearance, song Tianye asked with concern, "what did the Dean call you to do in the past?" He Yining saw the other two doctors who came back from the office and said in a dignified whisper: "the president asked me to go to Huakang with the people in the research department to talk about drug introduction." "..." Song Tianye twitched at the corners of his mouth and asked in a low voice, "does the Dean know your relationship with him?" He Yining shook his head. "I don''t know. I guess it''s because I want to get close to Li Yunze''s operation in academic research." "..." Song Tianye frowns and looks at he Yining with more and more worry, "doesn''t it matter?" "Yu Gong works for the welfare of patients and hospitals," why Ning Xinda''s self ridicule, "in private, I can still disgust him, which is also good." Hearing her say this, song Tianye obviously feels why he Ning resists. She sighed secretly and knew that the matter had been settled, whether it was good or bad, so it was the only way. the second day. Because she is going to talk about medicine this week, why Ning doesn''t need to schedule a 24-hour shift for the time being, which is her only happiness. On the one hand, you can see if there is a suitable nanny. On the other hand, think about whether it is school trusteeship or what to do? "Dr. he, you can go..." Xu Zhao, a foreign agent from the pharmacy department, came and shouted he Yining. He Yining explained what he was doing to another doctor, took off his white coat, carried his bag and went to Huakang hospital with Xu Zhao. "Hello, we''re from Shuya hospital. Come and talk to Li Shao about the introduction of new drugs..." "Li Shao is having a meeting at the moment. You go to the lounge and wait..." the administrative staff of Huakang hospital directly took Xu Zhao and he Yining to the lounge. They thought they were the only one. After entering, they found that there were two hospitals. One is public and the other is private. We are all "old acquaintances". After greeting one after another, we heard the staff of the Pharmaceutical Department of the public hospital ask, "Xu Zhao, this little sister is a newcomer in your department? I haven''t seen her before..." "There''s not enough staff. I''m on secondment." Xu Zhao didn''t clearly say why Ning''s identity, but just chatted hypocritically with everyone. After a while, another person from a public hospital came. This time, Huakang is going to delegate some special drugs from his own hospital. Everyone is trying hard to get them. He Yining couldn''t help but feel funny when he looked at the greetings of the people as if they were at a tea party. At the moment, all of them have bright smiles on their faces. They can''t decide. They can''t wait for each other to leave quickly! "Xu Zhao, Xiao He doesn''t say much. Are you sure you want to bring her to compete?" "Yes, I''m here to negotiate. I can''t do without talking..." At first, they talked and laughed. Soon, the signs were wrong. In fact, Xu Zhao doesn''t understand why the Dean sent a doctor to negotiate with him. But the dean said so. Finally, he saw that doctor he was growing well. He even thought a little evil that the Dean wouldn''t use a beauty trick?! But who doesn''t know that Li Yunze plays in the world, but he never touches women?! Even, privately, some people are still wondering whether Li Yunze is curved Even the person who said he was gentle or arrogant was torn. It was called a powerful one, which directly became two major forces in the water area of the medical forum. Although Xu Zhao thought like this, it is naturally impossible for him to take out his mouth of foreign affairs and "fight" with everyone. "Everyone has the value of everyone''s existence..." he Yining couldn''t see it in the end. "We''re here to talk less about drug introduction. It''s not that whoever has a better mouth can talk down." "Yo, Xiao He, what you said, I don''t feel strong!" Someone''s voice is a little cold, his face is obviously ironic, and the underlying meaning is already very obvious. Of course, he Yining could hear the meaning of his words. "It depends on what you think in your heart..." she sneered, "if everyone likes to move his mind and think that you can take the medicine in this way, Huakang is really despised!" Suddenly, the room became quiet. He Yining also felt the difference in the atmosphere. Subconsciously, he looked back When the administrative staff of Huakang opened the door, Li Yunze was still standing at the door in a white coat. He Yining felt his scalp numb and grinned secretly. He was depressed. Does she really have a problem with Li Yunze''s magnetic field? Why can he catch her every time she''s in trouble?! Xu Zhao also grinned secretly. Although there was nothing wrong with why Ning''s retort just now, I don''t know if Li Shao just heard it. Everyone stood up "That, Li Shao..." "Hua Kang is looked down upon..." Li Yunze''s voice interrupted Xu Zhao and his eyes fell on he Yining. "What are you doing here?" Chapter 1254 The atmosphere in the lounge suddenly became dignified. Why did Ning bite his teeth and feel embarrassed at once. Xu Zhao''s face is also a little uneasy, but people in other hospitals secretly rejoice in disaster one by one. Without a strong enemy, they will succeed a little more. "Li Shao, if you listen to half of what you say, you take it out of context?" Why should Ning Leng hum and have an uncontrollable tit for tat. Li Yunze''s face was slightly heavy, and a pair of eyes looked at he Yining. He looked at him coldly and didn''t fight at all. In the face of other men, smile as brightly as a flower Why, such an attitude when facing him? "It seems..." Li Yunze stepped forward and stood in front of he Yining. "Are you dissatisfied with my attitude?" Why did Ning coldly pull a smile, his eyes filled with pride accumulated from small to large, and slowly said: "don''t dare..." paused, "after all, we come here today, but we are all low-profile." Full of sarcastic words, Xu Zhao secretly frowned. After he touched he Yining, he hurried to accompany his smiling face and Li Yunze and said: "Li Shao, you come here today to see what requirements the special drugs introduced from Huakang pharmaceutical have. You are busy and don''t need to have the same experience with Xiao he..." People in other hospitals are eager to know the requirements of this time. However, they hope Li Yunze will get angry with Shuya and eliminate a competitor. Li Yunze and he Yining are still confronting each other. A cold one can''t tell whether he is angry or not. A dead one stares and obviously has a suppressed anger. When other hospitals were more and more glad that Shuya was expected to be finished, Li Yunze slowly restrained his confrontation and asked, "I listened to half... Tell me about the previous half!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Everyone, except he Yining, was stunned. No one could have imagined that Li Yunze''s final attitude was like this... Including Xu Zhao who has secretly scolded why Yining many times. "It''s all right," he Yining didn''t mention that other hospitals ridiculed Shuya for trying to use improper means. "In short, I''m not talking about Huakang..." Li Yunze slightly deepened his eyes. It''s strange to say that although he doesn''t like he Yining, he may have been haunted by her for so much time that he knows her very well. The emotion that had just crossed her eyes was clearly wronged, but she was stubborn and unwilling to say right and wrong. Li Yunze took back his sight indifferently, turned and sat down in front of him. Everyone also sat down again "Huakang pharmaceutical will treat the heart, kidney and three high..." Li Yunze said calmly. After saying the names of several drugs to be distributed, he looked at them with light in his eyes and continued calmly. "This week, I want to see the demand plans and targeted plans of various hospitals for several drugs first. Do you have any questions?" "No, no..." Several people in the hospital quickly shook their heads and said that they were eager to get it this time. Several drugs released by Huakang this time are special drugs with good reputation in the medical community. Before, we can only watch Huakang use it. Now we have the opportunity to compete for it. Naturally, we are fully motivated. Li Yunze didn''t say specific matters next, but the administrative staff on one side said. Li Yunze sat there slightly casually, and his sight occasionally crossed he Yining She drooped her eyes and carefully recorded the name of the medicine and what needed to be prepared. Li Yunze has never seen such he Yining. Even when he was in school, he Yining never looked very serious in front of him. He Yining felt his eyes and looked up subconsciously at Li Yunze But just at a glance, she took back her eyes. She didn''t want to go back and try to get the medicine. She was also said to be using a beauty trick. Although, she doesn''t mind the trick! Thinking like this, why should the uncontrolled corners of his mouth smile with a cunning smile? In that way, it fell into Li Yunze''s eyes and became more and more charming. Why didn''t he find it before? Why is he Yining pretty good-looking? Li Yunze thought that the administrative staff had finished all the matters this time. "Let''s go back and prepare..." Li Yunze took back the faint opening of his mind. "Because it''s a pilot, this time he will only choose one or two..." he looked around and obviously stopped when he Yining passed by. "Don''t think that only you here may come to negotiate more than ten hospitals..." As soon as they heard this, they began to play side drums. I don''t know which ones are there? The so-called "know yourself and know the enemy" can win a hundred battles. But now, in addition to these, they don''t know what else? Everyone left one after another with an urgent and uneasy mood, thinking about how to get the medicine one by one. "What do you think, Dr. he?" Xu Zhao asked on his way back. "I don''t know much about this," he Ning frowned. "In fact, I don''t quite understand the introduction of drugs." Xu Zhao sighed and didn''t understand the dean''s meaning more and more. The Dean gave a dead order this time. He would rather have a higher cost than get Huakang''s medicine But he gave a dead order, but he was given a doctor. What the hell is it? After returning to the hospital, he Yining and Xu Zhao went to the dean''s office and told the situation. As soon as Ma Guangming heard that there were more than a dozen competitors, his whole eyebrows tightened. He drooped his eyes and meditated for a while, and asked Xu Zhao to go back and prepare first, leaving why Yining. After Xu Zhao left, Ma Guangming said, "Dr. he, if you get Huakang''s medicine this time, the hospital can try its best to meet your personal difficulties or want to adjust." "...." he Yining grinned secretly. Is this a direct offer? "I heard that you want to transfer to obstetrics and Gynecology," Ma Guangming said. "When you are not busy in surgery, you can talk to the other side. These can be solved." "..." he Yining was silent. "In addition, the hospital can meet your special requirements during working hours..." Now, why not move. She has been worried about being on duty for 24 hours these two days. If the time can be adjusted and can be compared with obstetrics and Gynecology, how can we spell it "The Dean means that if we take Huakang''s medicine this time, I can talk with obstetrics and Gynecology and choose the time of work?" He Yining asked with certainty, "for example, can I not be worth 24 hours?" "Yes!" Ma Guangming made a direct decision. "Dean, I''ll try my best..." "Good!" Ma Guangming said earnestly, "Dr. he, don''t live up to the hospital''s hope for you." He Yining nodded and left the dean''s office. One afternoon, why would you rather think about how to take the medicine. Until after work, on the way to pick up one by one, why would you rather think about it and call Li Yunze Chapter 1255 When Li Yunze received the call from he Yining, he just went to an intensive care unit that had undergone heart surgery to see the situation. After the talent explained the matters needing attention of the nurse, the phone rang "Tonight is the key. Call me directly if you have anything." Li Yunze said, took out his mobile phone and walked out. When he saw why the call was peaceful, Li Yunze''s subconscious step stopped, and his sight became deeper and deeper. Take the initiative to call him For he Yining now, Li Yunze has been very sure that it is because of drugs. Just when the phone was about to ring, Li Yunze raised his feet again and picked up the phone and put it in his ear Li Yunze didn''t speak. He Yining didn''t take the initiative to speak on the bus. Li Yunze frowned slightly when he heard the sound of the bus stop report. He had an inexplicable taste in his heart. They used to be in a circle. Why didn''t Ning drive a car of one million to two million? When did he take a bus? Thinking like this, Li Yunze found that he had been so far away from the intersection circle of he Yining "Don''t talk?" Li Yunze''s voice showed his habitual indifference to why he Ning. Such emotion was caused by inertia. He Yining felt that she was really not as thick skinned as before. She wanted to fall behind in the past. She didn''t care what Li Yunze thought about such a thing. What she was obsessed with was to torture. He gave the medicine to Shuya. "That..." why Ning zhe said to the corner of her mouth, "I just want to ask if I can get off the private light system..." her voice hesitated, "think about Shuya." "Let me use public affairs for personal gain?" Li Yunze said softly, "why should I rather use public affairs for personal gain? The problem has to be private, isn''t it?" Li Yunze just finished taunting, and a dignified touch spilled from the middle of his eyebrows and eyes. He clearly knew why he would rather call. As soon as he opened his mouth, he mocked This is completely the sequelae of "training" from small to large. In the face of what he Yining does, he... Subconscious ridicule! "..." why did Ning show his teeth and gnash his teeth when he said to Li Yunze hundreds of times, "I''ve known the enemy for so many years, but I still have some camp friendship Li Yunze felt why he would rather blow up his hair. He lowered his eyes and slowly opened his mouth: "well, for the time being..." he paused. While raising his eyes, he said with an unknown smile at the bottom of his eyes, "however, if you want to use the public for personal gain, are you too whimsical?" "What do you want?" Why rather depressed at the same time, he got up and went to the back door, waiting to get off. "What do I want?" Li Yunze''s eyes gradually deepened, "if you appear in front of me in ten minutes, I''ll consider..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± He Yining listened to the voice of reporting the station in her ear. It would take more than 20 minutes and half an hour to take the subway to Huakang hospital from the place where she arrived at this moment. If Li Yunze was in Huakang. "Li Yunze, you did it on purpose!" Why would you rather gnash your teeth. "Yes!" "Bitch!" Why rather angry after scolding, directly cut off the phone and got off the bus after the bus stopped. As he walked to the kindergarten, why would he rather start scolding Li Yunze Why didn''t you know he was so cheap before?! Ah, ah, ah! Why are Ning Qi''s hands clenched, and his steps are full of "weight", a trend of looking for someone to fight. Jin shaosi sat in the car and looked at the figure of he Yining. A shallow smile gradually overflowed from the corners of his mouth. Although he didn''t know what happened when she took a bus, he looked at her now. Someone must have made her angry Jin shaosi''s eyes gradually deepened. Gradually, the smile at the corners of his mouth turned into self mockery. If you say, why Ning''s youth, you only have a Li Yunze in your eyes. Why His youth is not only one in his eyes. Why should he be peaceful?! "Boss, do you need to stop farther?" Lu fan asked. "Yes." Jin shaosi answered. Even if the distance is a little far, he can see her at a glance in the crowd of parents waiting to pick up their children, can''t he?! Jin shaosi looked at he Yining from a distance. When he saw one by one, his eyes were dim But in an instant, it became clear again. If Yining is willing to be with him, even Li Yunze''s child is willing to be raised as his own. Jin shaosi looked at the way mother and daughter held hands, and his heart had an unspeakable taste. Yining should have existed like a princess, and her children should grow up like a princess But now?! At the bottom of Jin shaosi''s eyes, there was a sense of hostility. That''s the anger of a rival in love for another man who doesn''t know how to cherish his love. "Mom, can we go to m Ji later?" One by one, his small face was raised, the corners of his mouth were raised, and his eyes were bent into crescent moons. He looked at he Yining pleasantly, "your dear baby, one by one, I haven''t eaten it for a long time." Why would you rather turn over your eyes and make a ''Bang'', "come on... You think I don''t know. Your aunt Zihan has taken you to eat before." One by one, he murmured his mouth and murmured Fang Zihan''s injustice in a stuffy whisper. "But I want to eat!" One by one hem said. "No, I eat too much calories at night!" He Yining refused. One by one, the little nose wrinkled, "I''m still a long body, not afraid..." she hummed, "besides, the high heat is for you. Mom can only watch me eat, there will be no heat!" "..." why Ning stopped and looked at them one by one with gnashing teeth, "he Xinyao, are you my own?" "Mom or not!" One by one, she flung her mouth proudly. "..." he Yining looked at the little proud and charming one by one. She looked the same as Li Yunze. She was so angry that she had to pinch people and bear it. She looked very funny. Why did Li Yunze provide a seed? This arrogant appearance is all the same as him?! unfair! He Yining, who was already angry with Li Yunze, decided not to compromise today, one by one to eat m Ji. Well, Dad''s debt is paid by his daughter! So, resolutely do not eat m mind, eat KFC instead When watching one by one eating chicken wings proudly, he Yining felt that he had no integrity not only in Li Yunze, but also in Li Yunze''s daughter Since she has no integrity and no bottom line, why should she decide to call Li Yunze tomorrow! He Yining made a decision and the whole person relaxed. He picked up a chicken wing and wanted to eat it "Mom, you will get fat after eating!" Protect your food one by one. "No big deal, I''ll go back and run a few laps at night..." One by one, duzui hum, "adults and children rob food, hum!" "..." he Yining looked at the one in the opposite direction and felt like crying without tears. "Yining?!" A slightly surprised voice came. He Yining looked... He saw Jin shaosi coming. Chapter 1256 Why Ning had a slight headache, but just for a moment, he looked calm. Her daughter is not in hiding, so it doesn''t matter to be known. "Ace..." why did Ning Dafang say hello, "how did you come here?" A man appears in KFC, especially a man like Jin shaosi, which is obviously a little abrupt. "Passing by," Jin shaosi lied, his face not red and gasping, "suddenly thought that he would accompany you to KFC to eat once in a while, so he came in..." Nostalgia, yes! Sure enough He Yining has no doubt at all. "She is..." Jin shaosi looked at one by one with doubts on his face. "My daughter!" Why Ning motioned Jin shaosi to sit down, looked at his surprised face and shrugged, "well, I was forced to catch up with the trend of a single mother." The bottom of Jin shaosi''s eyes overflowed uncontrollably and looked at he Yining painfully. Her self mockery seemed to have something to do with Li Yunze in his memory. "Hello, uncle!" After he Yining introduced himself, he skillfully shouted. Although Jin shaosi had seen the photos, when he saw the face with Li Yunze''s shadow, the sour taste in his heart gradually poured out. "Hello..." Jin shaosi collected his mind and smiled at them one by one. 11. Although sometimes they are more bear children, they are still very clever most of the time. She looked around and pushed Guo Zhen, who she hadn''t drunk yet, to Mr. Jin. "Uncle, please." Jin shaosi looked at the reluctant eyes one by one, but he still generously gave him the action. He couldn''t help but gradually deepen his eyes This one by one is like Yining when I was a child! "Thank you..." Jin shaosi naturally didn''t ask for Guozhen one by one. After "chatting" with them one by one, he looked at he Yining after seeing that the little girl began to eat happily and contentedly again. "At night, he said he didn''t have time because of one by one?" He Yining nodded, "come and pick her up after work..." "You can tell me directly." Jin shaosi''s voice was a little lost, "or do we have estrangement because we haven''t met for too long?" Why rather shrug, "I can''t just meet you. Let me tell you that I have a daughter?" Jin shaosi was silent and knew that it was not very convenient to say anything in front of the children. "What do you eat? I''ll buy it." He Yining asked. "Would you mind changing places?" After Jin shaosi asked, he looked at one by one, "I know there is a western restaurant with good dessert!" One by one, his eyes lit up when he heard dessert. He Yining didn''t refuse, packed chicken wings and other things that hadn''t been eaten one by one, and left KFC together. He Yining was silent and suddenly smiled, "ah Si, it seems that you''re doing a good job now..." "Because we have goals, we haven''t stopped making progress for ten years." Jin shaosi''s voice showed a touch of the extravagance from afar, but he Yining didn''t hear it. 11. I have never taken such a high-end and high-grade car, and my eyes are full of curiosity. One by one, ''Gulu'' with black eyes and small thoughts thought that this should be a very powerful car, as well as an exclusive driver. This uncle is tall and handsome, just like oba in the idol drama at night One by one, with a small mouth, he looked at Mr. Jin and asked, "millet, do you have a girlfriend?" "..." he Yining began to have a headache. Jin shaosi was stunned and shook his head with a smile. 11''s eyes brightened. "Millet, do you mind if my mother has me? If you don''t mind, can you be my mother''s boyfriend?" "He Xinyao!" Why Ning Fuer? If she doesn''t know Jin shaosi too well, she will jump out of the car in shame because of her daughter''s recommendation. Jin shaosi didn''t expect to ask him this one by one. His smile became gentle, "I don''t mind you, but it''s estimated that your mother will mind me!" The joking words were uttered with a trace of teasing, which alleviated the embarrassment of he Yining''s words one by one, but would not embarrass her. "Mom, would you mind?" One by one, I looked back curiously to he Yining, "millet is very handsome, and I like my mother very much at first sight!" "..." why Ning bared his teeth and stared one by one, "which eye do you see that ACE likes me?" "Two!" One by one, raise your little hand and stretch out two fingers. "He Xinyao, I can tell you clearly that ACE likes his mother, but his kind of love is the love of his relatives, that is, his mother likes you, okay?" He Yining felt that it was necessary to correct his daughter''s ideas. Jin shaosi''s eyes darkened. Lu fan, who has been driving silently, looks at he Yining from the rearview mirror. Boss in Brunei is a man of ups and downs. Even Jin group now plays an important role in the world. But no matter how powerful, the boss seems too small in front of he Yining. "That''s just right!" One by one, she wrung her little eyebrows. "The teacher said that the whole family, father, mother and children, are all relatives... Therefore, millet is still relatives as mother''s boyfriend!" "..." why would you rather roll your eyes than discuss such complex topics as family affection and love with a child. Jin shaosi is very disappointed. He hasn''t seen her for ten years. Is Yining just the feelings of her relatives?! After arriving at the western restaurant, one by one decided to give Jin shaosi and he Yining a chance to get along alone and asked Lu fan to sit at another table with her. "This is to set us up!" He Yining said easily. After all, there is no burden of speaking in front of relatives. "His daughter?" Jin shaosi asked, "does he know?" Why rather shake his head, "a beautiful mistake brings a small burden of happiness..." Jin shaosi looked closely at he Yining, looked at the stubbornness under her eyes, and her heart felt suffocating. "You work so hard alone," Jin shaosi said uncontrollably. "Yining, if you don''t mind, I can take care of your mother and daughter..." Seeing how Ning Weileng looked, Jin shaosi said, "after all, I''m your relative, aren''t I?" "If you follow a woman with children, it will affect your ability to make girlfriends!" He Yining said with a smile. I don''t mind Jin shaosi was roaring in his heart, but at this moment, he couldn''t say it. He can endure for ten years in the Jin family in exchange for today''s success. He can accompany Yining and get the most affectionate waiting... Isn''t he? ¡­¡­ A friend asked Li Yunze to have dinner. He had just arrived at the appointed western restaurant. Before the car stopped, he saw he Yining and major Jin sitting near the window. Li Yunze looked at the two people through the window At the right time, Jin shaosi took the napkin and handed it to he Yining with a smile, motioning her to wipe the corners of her mouth. Li Yunze suddenly felt an inexplicable anger in his heart. Even without thinking, he took out his mobile phone and dialed he Yining He Yining heard the phone ring and hurriedly took his bag and turned out the phone. When she saw that it was Li Yunze''s number, she frowned slightly, looked at Jin shaosi, and answered the phone, "hello?" "If you want to use public affairs for personal gain, I''ll give you a chance..." Li Yunze''s voice was gloomy. "Accompany me to dinner!" Chapter 1257 Why was Ning stunned and then frowned: "what do you mean?" "Literally..." Li Yunze''s voice was a little heavy. Why did Ning zhe lower the corner of his mouth and said in an obviously uncomfortable voice: "I''m not free at the moment..." Because Jin shaosi is still there and is around one by one, why is it impossible to have dinner with Li Yunze. In addition, based on her understanding of Li Yunze''s urination, the so-called "using public affairs for personal gain" is only for consideration, and she will never agree directly. She''s not that stupid! Li Yunze tilted his head again and saw that Mr. Jin put the cut steak plate in front of he Yining and took her back to him. Such intimate behavior made Li Yunze''s face more and more heavy. "Give you half an hour," Li Yunze said in a gloomy voice. "Blossom & TB, if I don''t see you, Shuya will directly eliminate this competition!" "Hey, don''t you..." "Doodle doodle..." Why Ning was so angry that he clenched his teeth and opened his mouth. Before he finished speaking, there was a hanging sound. "What''s the matter?" Jin shaosi looked at why Ning, who was angry, and asked with a slight frown. Naturally, he Yining can''t tell Jin shaosi that it was Li Yunze. She hasn''t seen Li Yunze for ten years. She still looks like a ghost to Li Yunze. She''s still quite ashamed in the end. "There''s something in the hospital..." he Yining said. It''s about the introduction of drugs in the hospital. She''s not lying... Is she?! "Are you in a hurry?" Jin shaosi slightly frowned, "if you are in a hurry, I''ll send you there. I''ll take care of it one by one." "This......" why should I rather be a little tangled. If Li Yunze kicks Shu Ya out tomorrow, the dean will be very angry and her life will be difficult. After all, the Dean even offered her a condition today. On the other hand, if she is kicked out so quickly without success, the dean''s anger will surely spill on her. But she gave them to ace to take care of, isn''t that what?! Although, she is very relieved of ACE, even if she doesn''t see him for ten years That is a kind of reassurance for relatives! "Don''t trust me?" Jin shaosi deliberately asked, "it''s hard to say about other children. It''s estimated that taking care of them one by one is still no problem." One by one, she likes handsome men and likes to eat. Jin shaosi has satisfied her with both of them. He Yining naturally knows that there is no problem taking care of them. As he was struggling, Jin shaosi said again, "you have something to eat first, and then I''ll take you there..." he paused, "I''ll take one by one to my hotel... Or I''ll take one by one to wait at your house!" Major Jin said so. In addition, he Yining was really afraid that Li Yunze would kick Shu Ya out. After entanglement, he could only promise. "I won''t eat any more. I''ll go to the hospital..." he Yining said, shouting one by one and explaining it to her. Originally, he Yining hoped that the little girl would refuse to be with Jin shaosi. In that way, even if Li Yunze was angry and didn''t give Shuya a chance, she could tell herself that it was for her daughter. Unfortunately "Mom, you go and be busy. I''ll have no problem with millet!" One by one said very seriously. "..." he Yining grinned secretly. What about the good guard?! It''s agreed not to let the "stranger" out of her sight?! Mom, how can you have a virtue with her one by one and stick to handsome guys since childhood Is this still hereditary?! Jin shaosi and picked their eyebrows one by one, then smiled and said to he Yining, "I''ll send you there..." "No!" He Yining watched Jin shaosi get up and hurriedly stopped, "I''ll just take a taxi. You can continue to eat with me one by one..." She quickly got up, took her bag and told them not to make trouble with Jin shaosi one by one. Then she left the restaurant in a hurry. Why rather secretly rejoice, fortunately, the restaurant where you are now is far away from blossom & amp; TB is not far. Jin shaosi didn''t doubt him. He just watched why Ning left. When he saw her taking a taxi on the roadside, he took back his sight and sent her a text message: call me when you''re busy, huh? He Yining replied: OK! Jin shaosi looked at a simple word and gradually smiled from the corners of his mouth. Yining, getting along starts from every bit of life. I believe that no matter you or one by one, I can take good care of you ¡­¡­ Blossom& TB is a very famous western restaurant under the emperor. The style and atmosphere here are full of low-key luxury. Li Yunze opened a bottle of red wine and his sight fell on the piano stage in the middle of the restaurant The woman was dressed in a red slanted shoulder dress and sat behind the black grand piano. The soft light fell on her. With the white fingers floating on the black-and-white keys, the whole person looked particularly quiet. It is said that birds of a feather flock together. Li Yunze played together in this circle. Although it can''t be said that all of them are very powerful in their respective fields, they can basically take action. For example, he and Beichen, who doesn''t know the basic skills and blessings needed in the upper class society except learning the national standard and musical instruments since childhood? But there is a different kind in their circle. That''s why Her family obviously makes elegant red wine, but she only likes carbonated drinks. Mingming was born in a rich family, but she can''t play instrumental music such as flower arrangement and Piano Even, she is not as good as Qu Weiwei, the daughter of sister-in-law Feng, the housekeeper of the he family. At that time, he would occasionally ridicule he Yining. Did she and Qu Weiwei hold each other in the hospital? Or, clearly a servant''s child, but noble like a young lady, clearly a young lady, but perverse! Thinking, the waiter took he Yining who hurried to Li Yunze''s position. He Yining looked at Li Yunze, who was elegant and meditative, with a few hearts in his heart, but there was an angry look on his face. "Li Shao," why Ning sneered, "you won''t tell me that you''re poor. You don''t have anyone to accompany you when you eat. In this way, find someone who makes you look upset to eat with you "What to eat?" Li Yunze directly ignored why he Ning''s momentum. Facing Li Yunze''s indifference, he Yining''s momentum suddenly weakened "I''ve eaten!" He Yining is a little depressed because he has no backbone in the face of Li Yunze for ten years. But such a gloomy expression fell into Li Yunze''s eyes and seemed to be angry that he affected her to have dinner with her boyfriend! Li Yunze was a little dark at the bottom of his eyes, and said in a cold voice, "I called you to eat..." "I''ll come," he Yining gritted his teeth, "for medicine!" "I hope I use public affairs for personal gain..." Li Yunze looked at he Yining with a pair of eyes. "Then take out some attitude!" What kind of smile do you want to hold? What kind of smile do you want to hold Why would she rather order something? Fortunately, she didn''t have time to eat just now. Her stomach can be put down. After eating for a while, he Yining looked at Li Yunze, who was eating slowly, and secretly looked at the time from time to time. Jin shaosi just came back. She gave her daughter to him and came to have dinner with Li Yunze Although, it''s for work. But she felt sorry and wanted to leave as soon as possible. "In a hurry?" Li Yunze glanced at how to calm his eyes, and a layer of black fog had filled the bottom of his eyes. Can''t she wait to get back to the man? Chapter 1258 He Yining sighed secretly, raised his eyes to Li Yunze, gritted his teeth and said with a hypocritical smile: "OK!" Li Yunze snorted coldly and deliberately ignored why Ning left in a hurry. He slowly poured himself a glass of red wine and tasted it If it is normal, he Yining must be full of flower infatuation for his actions at the moment. But with the passage of time, she thought one by one. Gradually, there was an indelible anxiety on her face. Why is it better to behave like this? Li Yunze seems to be more slow It''s not easy to see Li Yunze finally finish the bottle of red wine. Why should I rather think it''s time to go? Unfortunately, she is too stupid and naive "Li Yunze!" He Yining finally broke out, "what do you want?" She tilted her head to slightly restrain her dissatisfaction at the bottom of her eyes and looked at Li Yunze again. "I don''t think you''re going to use public affairs for personal gain at all. You''re just sneaking me on purpose, aren''t you?!" Li Yunze''s eyes slightly showed an incomprehensible emotion after drinking wine. He Yining looked at it. He didn''t speak, so he looked at why he Ning gnashing his teeth and gradually deepened his eyes. In the past, he Yining, even if he came to beg him for anything, looked like ''you are mine, and you should do something for me'' But now she is clearly dissatisfied with him, but she has no dead skin and arrogance, and some have only forbearance. He didn''t pay attention to her for too long, so he didn''t know that she restrained her edge?! He Yining was looked at by Li Yunze and bit his lower lip. "Li Yunze, it was a mistake for me to call you today. I shouldn''t think of going through the back door, because there is no back door at all... Even, it may bring you humiliation!" He stood up after pulling the bag. He Yining looked at Li Yunze and wanted to turn around and leave. "I''ve been drinking..." Li Yunze said slowly. He Yining clenched his hand with the bag, turned back and said, "I know!" "So," Li Yunze''s voice was still slow, "you can''t drive!" "..." why did Ning sneer, "Li Yunze, there is a character called Valet driving in this world... In addition, you can take a taxi when you go out!" "You didn''t drink!" Li Yunze did not answer the question. Why Ning''s mouth twitched. She really had nothing to say. Why does she think Li Yunze has become a little naive now?! "Do you agree to use public affairs for personal gain when I send you back?" He Yining decided to negotiate terms. Li Yunze''s eyes were deep, and a deep smile was slightly scratched at the corners of his mouth, "listed as a priority..." He Yining pondered. Although Li Yunze couldn''t agree directly, he could give priority. He always had some advantages. "Good!" He Yining agreed, "let''s go, I''ll see you off!" Li Yunze looked at why Ning. He couldn''t wait to send him back. He looked like a good man. His eyes couldn''t see to the end. After two or three hours of dawdling, she was still impatient to go back to the man?! "Go!" Why would you rather see Li Yunze motionless and frown slightly. "I didn''t say I would go back now..." Li Yunze said indifferently and pressed the call bell. Then, under why Yining gnashing his teeth, he asked for another bottle of red wine. "Give her a coke." Li Yunze spoke faintly. The waiter twitched at the corner of his mouth and drank coke in such a high-end western restaurant?! But the customer is God, not to mention Li Yunze''s request Soon, coke came up. He yunning is still biting red wine, and his heart is still manic. The sound of "Di" crossed, and the sound of text message came. He Yining took out his mobile phone, which was sent by Jin shaosi: one by one is sleepy, so I''ll let her go to bed first. Call me when you''re busy. Incidentally, Jin shaosi also sent a picture of sleeping one by one, which made him feel at ease. Looking at the little pink face one by one, why can''t you help laughing at the corners of your mouth "So happy with your smile..." Li Yunze''s cold words suddenly came, "how can you do it for your dead lover?" "Yes!" He Yining proudly raised his eyebrows, glanced at Li Yunze and replied to the text message. Yining: I guess I''ll be busy here for a while. Thank you, ace! Jin shaosi smiled at the corners of his mouth, and his charming peach eyes narrowed gently: I''m family! He Yining saw the four words sent by Jin shaosi, and the smile at the corners of his mouth became sweeter Family She hasn''t felt like such a family for a long time. It''s good! Why Ning received his mobile phone and suddenly found Li Yunze''s face dark, "what''s the matter with you?" Seeing he Yining, Li Yunze asked him innocently, "what''s the matter?" his heart was sour. He felt that the red wine he drank had turned sour at the moment. "It''s all right," Li Yunze suddenly put down his glass and got up. "Let''s go!" Why was Ning stunned and hurried to get up with Li Yunze. He was even more secretly happy. He was finally leaving. "Where do you live?" He Yining asked with his seat belt fastened after getting on the bus. Li Yunze didn''t speak and didn''t know if he drank a little too much. He just leaned back on his seat. He Yining frowned, "where do you live?" She paused. "Or take you back to your villa?" "Go back to the apartment." Li Yunze opened his mouth and said the address. He Yining just wanted to start the car when he heard Li Yunze say in a low voice, "I didn''t fasten my seat belt." "..." why was Ning stunned? When he wanted to ask him that he couldn''t fasten it, he still held back. OK, she has a request. He is Uncle Li Yunze! He Yining loosened his first and attached himself to pull the seat belt over Yunze. Li Yunze felt that he was dying. Why would he rather bend over? The faint breath on her poured into his breath. He was full of the kiss in the Research Institute. He Yining didn''t find that Li Yunze was suddenly tight. After tying it up for him, he fixed it himself, started the car and drove to the apartment According to Li Yunze''s instructions, he Yining drove the car to the parking space. "Li Yunze, it''s agreed that I''ll send you back. You should give priority to Shuya." He Yining asked with certainty. "Yes." Li Yunze was more and more tense because he Yining was smelling in his nose all the way. Why should I rather see that Li Yunze didn''t repent? As soon as I was happy, I loosened my seat belt and wanted to get off with my bag. "In such a hurry?" Li Yunze''s eyes were deep and a little confused after drinking. "Finish the task, of course I have to go..." This toss has been more than 11 o''clock. He Yining didn''t find Li Yunze''s sinking face again. After getting the bag, he wanted to open the door. Suddenly The wrist was caught. He Yining looked back at Li Yunze. Just when he wanted to ask him what he was doing, he saw the tall figure suddenly pressed down Chapter 1259 Why Ning stared wide. Li Yunze''s lips had severely pressed her, and didn''t even give her any chance to respond. The thick tongue drove straight into her mouth and stirred up madly. "Well..." He Yining only felt that his lips and tongue were wrapped in pain by Li Yunze. Subconsciously, he wanted to push him away One night, from her constantly looking at her watch, to the urgent need to leave just now, and then to the resistance at this moment, she completely angered the hidden emotion in Li Yunze''s body that he didn''t know. The attack of lips and tongue is more and more fierce. He Yining can only be forced to accept what Li Yunze gave her. Xu is the result of his obsession. After a while, he subconsciously resisted from the beginning and gradually became intoxicated. Not a spacious space, because of the deep kiss between two people, it becomes ambiguous. Why Ning''s investment, Li Yunze''s desire, as if at this moment, nothing could stop the two people from further Li Yunze''s kiss has slipped from his lips to he Yining''s neck. The seat didn''t know when it was put down. It became a position where two people had enough space to do something. Why Ning''s breath has long been chaotic, and Li Yunze''s body is hot and unbearable under the smell of wine. The palpitation of the heart, at this moment, seems to have nothing to break through. Li Yunze''s breath is thick and powerful. He can''t wait, which makes all his nerves full of wanted thoughts "Well..." He Yining shouted uncontrollably under the fire everywhere in Li Yunze. In her only remaining consciousness, she told herself to stop, to stop However, the rejection of overflow mouth has completely become the voice of exhortation under the ambiguous invitation. If Mingze is too sad, she will know what she will bring again. The smell is getting hotter and hotter. The charming atmosphere in the car tightly wrapped the two people The final battle will be triggered soon. At this moment, two emotional people have no thoughts to think about. Should this continue. Suddenly Just as Li Yunze was ready to go, the ring of his mobile phone suddenly came. He Yining''s thoughts suddenly woke up. She looked at Li Yunze, who was also awake because of the cell phone ringing. The two people looked at each other. At that moment, all kinds of complex emotions were flowing between the two people. The mobile phone bell has been ringing. Why should Ning bite his lip? He feels ashamed and embarrassed about what he just forgot to be in the car with Li Yunze. "You, you..." why would you rather bite your lips and blush and bleed? "Get up first..." Unlike the kiss on that day, today two people are almost at the last step. Even her clothes had been messy and her pants had been unbuttoned. Li Yunze didn''t get out of the way, but looked at he Yining with a pair of eyes. Is he really crazy?! He wanted her out of control under such circumstances! The breath of embarrassment circulated. The mobile phone bell stopped in time, but soon it rang again. Why would you rather see that Li Yunze didn''t intend to get out of the way at all? I was worried that it was Jin shaosi who called at the moment, and I was afraid of what happened one by one. She bit her teeth, reached for the bag that had just fallen to the side, and took out her mobile phone Seeing that it was Jin shaosi, he Yining''s face became a little complicated. Li Yunze also saw the name of the caller Ace?! At first glance, it''s a man''s name, and he''s shouting so close. Just sober thoughts, because see the name of the call again become heavy and violent He Yining wanted to answer the phone, but his mobile phone was suddenly robbed by Li Yunze. "Li Yunze, what are you doing?" Why is Ning anxious? I''m afraid Jin shaosi called because of one by one. Li Yunze directly threw the mobile phone into the back seat and let the mobile phone ring there "Why, your lover?" Li Yunze''s voice was dark under cold evil. "Psycho!" Why rather scold, just want to push away Li Yunze. But she was the one who was pressed. With Li Yunze''s strength, she couldn''t push him away at all. "Li Yunze, you let... Oh!" Why was Ning anxious and pushed again, but he was shackled by Li Yunze''s strong way. "What?" Li Yunze''s voice was cold, "afraid he knows you''re with a man?" "What are you talking about?" He Yining wanted to withdraw his hand angrily. The more she was like this, Li Yunze''s anger burned more and more exuberant, "just forgot myself under me, and now I want to run to another man before I get up?" Why did Ning stop and stare at Li Yunze She couldn''t believe Li Yunze would say such ugly words. Even if he hated her before, he didn''t say such insulting things. As soon as the nose is sour, why should Ning''s eyes suddenly turn red. "Li Yunze, how can I have anything to do with you?" Why do you rather try not to let your tears flow out, "I didn''t want to be under you just now, but you pressed me... Why do you say that about me?" "Why, didn''t you enjoy it just now?" Li Yunze hissed coldly. When the phone rang again, he couldn''t help himself. Why Ning opened his mouth and wanted to say something, but at the thought of just being intoxicated, the corners of his mouth suddenly became self mockery. "Li Yunze, why do you treat me like this?" Why Ning''s voice was filled with sadness. The self mockery at the corners of her mouth was getting bigger and bigger, and the water mist gradually appeared at the bottom of her eyes. "Just because I once loved you, just because I once loved you without limit, can you hurt me so recklessly?" The voice of the accusation fell, and the tears could no longer be controlled He Yining shed tears, but she turned her head and smiled. The sadness that she could not put down and could only let Li Yunze hurt herself without scruples filled all her thoughts. Li Yunze''s heart suddenly tightened. Why would he rather keep saying "once", which made him only feel that the blockage was severe. But looking at why he would rather cry, he gradually frowned. Are they used to fighting each other? Clearly, clearly, he didn''t want to say such hurtful words He''s just angry! Li Yunze''s thoughts suddenly stagnated. Why did he get angry? Because he Yining had dinner with other men, because the man was waiting for her, and she was eager to go back, so he was angry? Li Yunze, you don''t love, but you don''t allow others to love Why? "Yining..." "Get out of the way!" Why did Ning bite his teeth and interrupt Li Yunze''s words. The passion has already cooled down. The confrontation and injury at this moment seem to be just a dream that should not appea Chapter 1260 Li Yunze didn''t move. Why should Ning suddenly push him. Li Yunze bumped into the steering wheel with unstable center of gravity. Why should he rather get his clothes out of the car. When I opened the door in the back seat, why would I rather take my cell phone and bag without looking at Li Yunze? With a bang, I slammed the door shut. Tears, completely uncontrollable, gushed out. She couldn''t resist Li Yunze, and even let him hurt herself. It was as if her body was going to be hollowed out. "Woo..." Why should I be sad, squat down and start crying with my legs in my arms. Li Yunze also got out of the car. He looked at he Yining squatting on the ground crying, and his heart was cramping uncontrollably He wants to come forward and apologize for what he just said. But looking at the back of he Yining, who trembled because of crying, his feet sank as if he couldn''t lift them up. ¡­¡­ Jin shaosi didn''t answer the phone after dialing several times. He couldn''t help frowning. I don''t know why. I always felt uneasy just now, as if something was going to happen. Looking at the night view of Los Angeles through such a large glass window, Jin shaosi secretly mocked himself Yining goes back to the hospital. There may be an emergency. Isn''t it normal that she can''t answer the phone? Jin shaosi sighed and was afraid of his calls. He Yining looked back and thought something had happened, so he sent her a text message: sleep well one by one. Don''t worry. Seeing the successful sending of the text message, Jin shaosi turned around. He went to see the next one first. Sure enough, the little guy had kicked off the quilt. Jin shaosi covered the quilt one by one and adjusted the temperature of the air conditioner. He was worried that if he kicked the quilt one by one, he would catch a cold from the cold wind. After it was done, Jin shaosi went outside. He sat at his desk and opened the mail that needed to be processed in the computer. While processing his work, he waited for he Yining. When he Yining came back, it was past midnight Jin shaosi looked at her red and swollen eyes and frowned slightly, "Yining, what''s the matter?" She knew how sad her mood was at the moment, and there was no way to hide it. "Seeing the critically ill patients leave the hospital, the family members are very sad. I......" he Yining didn''t go on. Jin shaosi sighed, "I''m afraid the doctor will see a lot of impermanence of life and death. You''re so emotional. I don''t know if you''ll empty out your emotions." With that, Jin shaosi painfully hugged he Yining gently in a very gentlemanly posture. "If you can''t see through, don''t you often cry for other people''s lives in the future?" He Yining didn''t speak in silence. On the one hand, because she cheated shaosi Jin, she didn''t want to continue lying. On the other hand, she suddenly thanked that at such a moment, there was at least a hug from her relatives Jin shaosi let go of he Yining and said softly, "I slept soundly one by one. Now I''ll wake her up when I take her back..." paused, "you''ll live here tonight. I''ll open another room next door." He Yining thought for a moment and nodded, "ace, thank you..." "Yining, do you have to share with me like this?" Jin shaosi sighed helplessly. Why would you rather go to the corner of your mouth. "OK, let''s see what''s bothering you..." Jin shaosi rubbed why Ning''s head. "There''s a clean Nightgown inside. I''ll have someone send you the clothes tomorrow morning, huh?" "Yes." Why should I answer the voice rather stuffy. Jin shaosi looked at the girl painfully, even if she was the mother of a four-year-old child But in his eyes, he Yining is still the girl he wants to pet and protect. After Jin shaosi explained, he left the suite. He doesn''t want to put pressure on he Yining, and he doesn''t want to embarrass the relationship between the two just after meeting. Why Ning took a bath and went to bed quietly. One by one, the little mouth ''barked'' down. In my sleep, I don''t know what I dreamed, but the little mouth was raised He Yining looked at them one by one, and the grievances at that time seemed to disappear gradually. The sound of "Di" came. He Yining first looked at the one who was still sleeping soundly, and then reached into his hand and took the mobile phone that was put aside. Li Ze: I''m sorry, it''s a text message in the evening! He Yining looked at the text message and gradually became distracted. She didn''t return to her mind until the mobile phone screen automatically went dark. Why did Ning pull it off astringently, put the mobile phone aside, turn off the light and close his eyes She forgave such a great sadness because of Li Yunze''s apology. He Yining, Li Yunze is the doom of your life. You will never escape. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze sat on the rattan chair on the terrace, closed his eyes, and his face was upset. Thinking of his behavior towards he Yining in the car at that time, Li Yunze''s eyebrows tightened. He is not an impulsive person, but when he thinks about why he would rather be in the arms of another man, he seems to be unable to control the heat under his original breath. If it wasn''t for the phone call of ''ace'', did he say what Yining said? Because she once loved him, he wantonly hurt her? Li Yunze slowly opened his eyes, and his eyes became deep and bottomless because of irritability. "Li Yunze..." Li Yunze murmured with self mockery, "why should one occupy your youth... But if you can''t finish your life with her, why bother her?" Li Yunze''s self mockery at the corners of his mouth was even worse, and he suddenly felt very despicable. He doesn''t want it. Do you want to spend it on him all your life? Li Yunze''s heart became more and more heavy. He got up impatiently and walked to the bathroom When the cold water washed his body, Li Yunze thought he could calm down, but found that he was more and more at a loss about why to be peaceful. Time, in the busy day by day. More than a dozen hospitals involved in competing drugs, including several in other cities, made reports on their hospital needs and other matters within a week and handed them to Huakang. After what happened that night, he Yining never saw Li Yunze again. Even if I came with Xu Zhao to handle the progress of Huakang, the people I contacted were basically Huakang''s administrative personnel. "Yining..." yanmiao just got off work. "Are you going back to the hospital later? No, let''s go together!" Xu Zhao looked at the time, "doctor he, you don''t have to go back. I''ll just go back..." "Well, good." Xu Zhao and Yan Miao nodded and left. "Go and pick up one by one first. In the evening, we''ll go to the night market to clean up..." yanmiao said. He Yining has no opinion and walks outside Huakang with yanmiao When the two talents came out of the hospital building, they saw Li Yunze copying his pocket with one hand and followed Wang Zhihua, the director of Huakang pharmaceutical factory. They came face to face together. He Yining and yanmiao stopped. Yanmiao is in the hospital. She can''t ignore the director of the pharmaceutical factory and Li Yunze, and he Yining is... Subconscious. Li Yunze kept walking, his sight fell on he Yining, and there was a complex emotion rising in the depths. "Li Shao, director Wang..." Yan Miao said politely. Wang Zhihua nodded in response. Li Yunze didn''t answer, but when he Yining was about to arrive, he took back his sight and passed her without any expression It''s like a stranger! Chapter 1261 He Yining grabbed the corner of his mouth uncontrollably, and his hand holding the bag was gradually clenched. Yan Miao frowned and subconsciously looked back at Li Yunze Wang Zhihua, who has a considerable position in the pharmaceutical industry, is obviously a little shorter around him. Alas, people are capable. It''s really a loser. Yan Miao looked back, "I said, what''s the situation?" She slightly wrung her eyebrows. "Li Yunze just had something wrong?" Even if he and Yining are wrong, he can''t be like a stranger. It''s too strange If Wang Zhihua is around, yanmiao doesn''t believe it. Why should I rather hang my eyes, collect the complex and self mocking emotion at the bottom of my eyes, and pull the corners of my mouth, "isn''t that good? Anyway, there''s no result, it''s better to have no past..." Yanmiao twitched at the corner of his mouth, "Yining, you''re not right!" He Yining raised his eyes and smiled, "don''t let people be hypocritical?" She asked, "OK, go and answer one by one." Yan Miao shrugged and did not continue Li Yunze''s topic. Anyway, for he Yining, Li Yunze is a dead knot that can never be broken. The next days are the results of hospitals waiting for Huakang. A big event happened in Los Angeles over the weekend. Gu Beichen''s wife was exposed at the wedding of the bosses of two architectural design companies. The hidden wife is Jian Mo, a designer of Xiangyu architectural design company. He Yining looked at the report. Gu Beichen arranged the skirt for Jian Mo, a look of vowing sovereignty, and a smile of blessing overflowed from the corners of his mouth. Bless not only Jian Mo, but also Gu Beichen. After all, they used to be in the same circle. Seeing that Gu Beichen can be happy, why do you think it''s also a happy thing. Why should Ning''s mouth pass astringently, and then he sighed deeply. It''s nice that Xiao Jie is finally with his father and mother... But where are her one by one?! He Yining put down the newspaper and went to the kitchen to make a steamed egg. When he woke up one by one, he could eat it together. When the talent moves, the mobile phone rings. It''s Jin shaosi. "Ace!" "Yining, are you free later?" Jin shaosi''s voice came with a smile. "I''m waiting for a nap one by one. There should be nothing wrong..." "Well, I''ll pick you up." "What are you doing?" He Yining asked. "Go back and you''ll know..." He Yining grinned and suddenly felt a little funny about such a "surprise" under the prediction. Why should I rather answer the voice and put down my mobile phone to steam eggs. When the steam was almost ready, Jin shaosi arrived and woke up one by one. "After all these years, are you still so persistent about steamed eggs?" Jin shaosi glanced at the steamed egg and said. Why rather shrug, "no way, I am such a person who believes that I like and doesn''t let go..." Jin shaosi frowned slightly and looked at why Yining. There was nothing wrong, but he was a little astringent in his heart. Is it because of such a character that Yining has an unrelenting attachment to steamed eggs or Li Yunze? Three people eat steamed eggs together. Just looking at the picture, it''s just like a warm family. "I didn''t expect you to do so well now..." "That is!" He Yining said proudly and easily, "I''m such a smart person. I can''t do it without thinking about it!" "Brag!" Make complaints about them. He Ning wrinkled his nose at her and continued to talk nonsense with Jin shaosi. Young secretary Jin looked at he Yining with a look of "those are not things" and was very distressed. After all, she used to be the daughter of a rich family. When does she need to go to the kitchen by herself? At that time, even if she wanted to make some food for Li Yunze, she often failed and had to ask sister-in-law Feng to make it, and then said she made it herself. Jin shaosi smiled at himself. It turned out that he knew everything about her like this. Lu Fan drove, pulling two big and one small to the northern suburbs of Los Angeles When he was about to arrive at his destination, he Yining seemed to feel something? Even if she hasn''t come for many years, she still knows what''s in this place. "Ah si..." why Ning glanced at shaosi Jin. Jin Ning nodded and smiled. When the car stopped at the former Hejia vineyard, he Yining''s nose suddenly became sour. For so many years, she didn''t come back not only because she didn''t have the ability to buy back her father''s favorite vineyard, but also because she was afraid of being hurt by the scenery and made herself vulnerable and unable to insist. When I stand in the vineyard again, I don''t know how to describe the sour mood at that moment. "Wow, a lot of grapes..." one by one, the snack goods had bright eyes, and their legs immediately jumped to a grape tree. They picked a grape and put it into their mouth before Jin shaosi reminded them. "Hmm..." the whole sour little face was wrinkled together, and even the little body trembled. He Yining was originally in a sour mood. Seeing the appearance of one by one, "puff" and laughed. "So sour!" He tooted his mouth one by one and quickly spit out what was in his mouth. Jin shaosi came forward, took out his handkerchief and wiped the corners of his mouth one by one. "It''s not mature, of course it''s sour..." he paused. "Moreover, these grapes are used to make wine. They have thick skin and less meat. At this time, they taste astringent and sour." One by one tooted his small mouth and looked at the vineyard without seeing the edge. He was obviously disappointed. "Don''t worry, there is a small area of grapes inside, which are specially used for eating..." "Really?" Jin shaosi nodded, "of course... When did Uncle cheat you?" "No!" It was like kissing Jin on his father''s and daughter''s arms. One by one, he began to have fun in the vineyard. After Jin shaosi asked Lu fan to follow him, he Yining walked inside with him. "You won''t tell me you bought the winery, will you?" "Yes." Jin shaosi stopped and looked at he Yining affectionately. "There are still wineries here. With our memory, I don''t want to become a business in the hands of others." He Yining looked at Shang Jin shaosi. She didn''t know why. She felt he was different It''s not that he has money or different status, but that he looks at her differently? But what''s different, he Yining didn''t understand. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze came out of the pharmaceutical room and nodded slightly as Wang Zhihua said that he would release the quantity of drugs and other things. "Li Shao, finally decide which one?" Wang Zhihua asked. Li Yunze pondered and looked at the information of each family in his hand "The general manager of the army always has to think about it in the face of old Lin." Wang Zhihua said, "this is already one in Los Angeles. Should another consider other cities?" Chapter 1262 The original plan was to distribute one in Los Angeles and one in other cities, so that doctors and patients don''t put all the diagnosis and treatment directions in Los Angeles But unexpectedly, the general manager of the army, who has always had his own research direction, suddenly participated in it, and old Lin said hello again. Not to mention the friendship between several families, even the relationship between Li Yunze and Lin Nanan, he can''t refute face. "The first people''s Hospital in the East China Sea..." Li Yunze decided on the second one. Wang Zhihua nodded and said he understood. "In addition, add a Shuya." Li Yunze put down all the information in his hand and said. "Ah?" Wang Zhihua thought he had heard wrong. "The general manager of the army joined unexpectedly this time, so he can''t directly occupy the quota..." Li Yunze said, "the city will add another Shuya." Wang Zhihua thought for a while and felt it was appropriate. He nodded, "OK." Li Yunze didn''t say anything more and turned and left the pharmaceutical factory. Wang Zhihua stood in place, looked at Li Yunze''s back and frowned slightly. Although Li Shao''s words are understandable, according to the Li family''s work style, even if this favor is given to the general manager of the army, he will not consider one more family. The most important thing is Wang Zhihua suddenly remembered something and hurriedly chased Li Yunze out. "Li Shao..." "What else?" Li Yunze stopped. Wang Zhihua said with a bitter look on his face: "the amount of medicine this time is determined according to the amount distributed by the two families. Now there is one more..." Li Yunze pondered slightly, "according to each family''s drug plan, 30% will be distributed first and supplied in three times." "OK." Wang Zhihua answered, "then there''s nothing else." "Yes." Li Yunze answered, got on the bus and left Huakang pharmaceutical factory. All the way to the city... There was an exposure report on Gu Beichen''s wife is Jian Mo on the radio. Li Yunze smiled. Beichen finally found an opportunity to put the two people in the open. Thinking, Li Yunze dialed Gu Beichen''s phone. As soon as the phone got through, I heard Jane Mo''s voice: what do you mean I seduce you? Gu Beichen, your ladies say I seduce you? Obviously you seduced me Gu Beichen replied: Yes, I seduced you. Jane Mo smiled, "it''s almost..." "Hello," said Li Yunze with a headache, "I''m calling, not to listen to you two flirting." "Didn''t you call to congratulate me on the success of the revolution?" Gu Beichen asked. Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth and wanted to refute, but finally he could only say, "yes!" Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and smiled, raised his eyes, looked at Jian Mo holding the tablet and brushing the comments of microblog and forum there. He shook his head in his eyes and said to Li Yunze, "have dinner together at night?" "You only made it public today. Shouldn''t you come as your wedding night?" Li Yunze directly exposed Gu Beichen''s hypocrisy, "anyway, boss long is coming back these days. Let''s get together!" "OK..." "OK, I won''t disturb your happiness. I''ll hang up." "Well, make another appointment." Li Yunze hung up the phone and began to feel empty for no reason. I haven''t had such a feeling before. Why can''t he see people show their love when he has made some trouble with he Yining recently? As long as he sees Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, Li Jinxi and Chen Yu, he feels this heart... Empty! Alas! Li Yunze pulled over and stopped the car. He simply got off and leaned on the body, looking at the distance He didn''t know whether it was a habit or full of feelings. However, he didn''t want to mess with he Yining until he found out It is not only irresponsible to her, but also not serious to yourself. ¡­¡­ As soon as he went to work, he Yining heard about the list of drugs distributed by Huakang pharmaceutical this time. There is one more than the one or two mentioned before, but no matter how many, Shuya is in the list of drug distribution. Ma Guangming was so happy that he felt that he must have understood Li Yunze''s ideas and sent him why he would rather go there, so there would be Shuya in the column. "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." Ma Guangming put down the fax and saw why Yining come in. "Dean." "Sit down!" Ma Guangming grinned and was in a good mood at first glance. "Dr. he, you owe a lot to taking Huakang''s medicine this time." "I''m just a foil, mainly thanks to Xu Zhao." "Don''t be modest..." Ma Guangming looked at he Yining vaguely. In fact, Ma Guangming knows whether Shuya can win the medicine this time. There is no more than 50% chance. But this time the two became three. Why... It goes without saying. "Come on, what are your requirements?" Why should I rather keep my lips down, "that''s the same." "You can go to obstetrics and Gynecology, and then you''re not on a 24-hour shift?" Ma Guangming asked with certainty. "Yes." Ma Guangming listened and immediately made a decision. "OK..." paused, "are there any other requirements?" Why rather shake his head, "no more." She was satisfied that she could go to obstetrics and Gynecology without changing subjects and have time to take care of one by one. Seeing that he Yining had only such a simple request, Ma Guangming couldn''t help nodding, "OK, I''ll say hello to your department director and the Department of Obstetrics and Gynecology, and you''ll take into account your own time... The premise is that you should arrange your own time reasonably before you transfer to another department." "I will!" He Yining smiled and nodded hurriedly, "Dean, if there''s nothing else, I''ll go first..." Ma Guangming nodded and sighed as he Yining left. "Now there are not many people who can be satisfied like this... I don''t know what the relationship between he Yining and Li Yunze is. They can be selfish enough to distribute drugs." Ma Guangming finished, looking at the fax sent by Hua Kang, he couldn''t help grinning. ¡­¡­ In a relatively prosperous but not very large town only more than 200 kilometers away from Los Angeles, a woman in her fifties is happily picking fruit at a fruit stall. "Sister Feng, why did you buy so many fruits today?" The landlady of the fruit stall asked as she weighed. Sister Feng couldn''t close her mouth. "My daughter came back from abroad..." "Yo, it''s your daughter Weiwei who went to Harvard with a full scholarship?" "Yes," said sister-in-law Feng, unable to close her happy mouth, "I haven''t come back for several years. It''s not easy to come back." "Sister Feng, it''s nice of you to have a promising daughter!" The stall owner put the fruit into sister-in-law Feng''s basket, "but your daughter is so promising that she can''t nest in this small place when she comes back?" "Who knows? Let her..." sister-in-law Feng said with a smile. "Alas, if you go out to develop, I think you have to go to big cities such as Los Angeles and the seaside." Referring to Los Angeles, sister-in-law Feng''s face was obviously stiff. Then she converged again. After chatting with the stall owner, she went home. As soon as I opened the door, I heard Qu Weiwei''s capable voice: "I decided to go to Los Angeles!" Chapter 1263 Sister-in-law Feng''s hand at pushing the door stopped for only a few seconds. She entered the room as if she hadn''t heard anything. "Weiwei," cried sister-in-law Feng, "I bought fruit. What would you like to eat, juice or directly?" "Mom, I''ll do it myself later." Qu Weiwei said and then said to the person on the phone, "I''m going to have a rest these days. The rest will be discussed when we meet." The other party didn''t know what she said. Qu Weiwei answered, "well, I know." After hanging up, Qu Weiwei got up and went to the kitchen With capable temperament and excellent figure, Qu Weiwei is full of charm under self-confidence. "Mom, why do you buy so much?" Qu Weiwei said and began to wash with sister-in-law Feng. "Just came in and heard you want to go to Los Angeles?" Sister-in-law Feng asked pretending to be chatting. "Well," Qu Weiwei answered with a calm face, "that''s the economic center of the country. What I learn, of course, only that can give full play to my greatest ability." Sister-in-law Feng took an apple and began to cut it. "Weiwei, tell your mother the truth, you go to Los Angeles..." paused, "is it just because of work or something else?" "What else can I do?" Qu Weiwei suddenly felt funny and asked. Sister-in-law Feng sighed deeply and looked at Qu Weiwei''s expression. She hoped she thought more. "Although Los Angeles is very big, sometimes you may not be able to meet someone in the city in your life..." sister-in-law Feng took the orange and began to cut, "but sometimes it''s strange. It''s easy to meet someone in that city." "Mom, what are you trying to say?" Li Weiwei turned around and leaned slightly on the stage to look at sister-in-law Feng. Sister-in-law Feng looked at her daughter and continued to cut the fruit. "What do I want to say, in fact, you understand..." she sighed, "he family has fallen down, and it''s not easy for Miss Yining. Some things, Weiwei, if you can put it down... After all, it''s the credit of your husband that you can get a good education." Qu Weiwei felt a strange emotion in her eyes, but soon disappeared. "Mom, how long have you been a servant?" Qu Weiwei rolled over her eyes and continued to wash the fruit. "Do I need to see what he Yining is like now? I''m afraid of losing my identity!" Sister-in-law Feng looked at her daughter, didn''t say anything, and cut off the topic. The past is the past. No matter who is right or wrong, sister-in-law Feng is still grateful to he Tianshu for taking them in and working in their family. She also allows Weiwei and miss Yining to go to school together and live an almost miss life. Although the last things happened, she was also angry It seems understandable that Master Li is so important to miss Yining. ¡­¡­ On this day, why would you rather go to pick up one by one and find the little girl bored. "What''s the matter?" Why rather slightly frown, "if it''s uncomfortable, remember to say to your mother, en?" One by one tooted his small mouth and looked up, "Mom, Xiaojie is going to change school." Why Ning was stunned, so she heard one by one: "Xiaojie said, what Spencer is going to transfer..." she left her mouth, "Mom, is that school very good? Why does Xiaojie go to school there?" "Because..." "Hum, I know." One by one, the little nose wrinkled. "Because Xiao Jie had a father, he lived with his father, and then went to Spencer school." "..." why did Ning take a breath from the corner of his mouth. One by one looked up and looked at he Yining with some dissatisfaction, "Mom, when will you find my father for me?" She seemed very angry, "in fact, I think uncle Si is very good. He can become a father!" "Uncle Si said," don''t be blind. " "If my mother marries uncle Si, then uncle Si is my father!" One by one said discontentedly. Why Ning sighed helplessly, "he Xinyao, how many benefits has ace given you? Are you brainwashing me?" "Uncle Si is good to one by one. He is also good to his mother!" One by one looked up at he Yining and said, "Mom, don''t you like Uncle Si?" "There are many kinds of likes. My mother''s love for uncle Si is not to marry him..." he Yining tried his best to explain. "Who does mother like?" One nose slightly mumbled, "one also wants a father!" Why rather stopped and looked at the distressed faces one by one, feeling guilty. Although one will not show a strong desire for the other of her parents like many single parent children, she will feel some things occasionally. For example, one by one will think that as long as there is a father, you can go to Spencer school and continue to be with Xiao Jie. "Yining..." Song Tianye sees why Yining holding his chin in a daze as soon as he enters the office. Why should Ning suddenly return to his mind? Just thinking about the one-to-one things yesterday, he was distracted. "What do you think, so absorbed?" Song Tianye puts the freshly prepared milk tea in front of he Yining. "It''s empty..." he Yining said with some embarrassment. Song Tianye smiled and shook his head. "How do you feel about going to the Department of Obstetrics and Gynecology these two days?" "Very good." He Yining said with a smile, "I wanted to go to that department. If I like it, it''s all right." "When you practiced, you should choose that subject directly." Song Tianye sat down. "For him to choose surgery, don''t you want to transfer in the end?" Why Ning Yanran pulled down the corners of her mouth, drank milk tea and sighed. I haven''t seen Li Yunze in Huakang for more than 20 days. How time flies "I was young and not sensible at that time." He Yining smiled and said, "Tianye, I heard that a little nurse in the internal medicine department has been pestering you very tightly these days?" Song Tianye''s face was a little unnatural. "It''s very annoying." Why Ning zhe smiled, "seriously, if it''s appropriate, just get along and have a look. You can''t always be alone..." "I said he Yining. Even if you don''t like me, it''s very hurt for me to push me to other people like this?" Song Tianye looked helpless. "Why do you have to consider my feelings, don''t you?" He Yining smiled and just wanted to speak, the director came in. "Director..." "You''re both here." The director said, "who are you two going to the national medical seminar to be held in Nanhai on Friday?" Song Tianye and he Yining looked at each other. Before they spoke, they heard the director say, "doctor he, just go over..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± "Dr. Song still has surgery. Changing the attending doctor is psychologically bad for the patients." The director said, "you''re not on duty anyway, and there''s nothing big lately..." He Yining sighed secretly, and she knew that the director was unhappy because of the order issued by the dean and her desire to go to obstetrics and gynecology. "Good!" Why should I answer. The director didn''t say anything more and turned away. "The annual medical seminar is totally different from the one we went to last time..." Song Tianye frowned. "It''s hard to please." Why would you rather shrug your shoulders to show that it doesn''t matter. Song Tianye''s thoughts suddenly stagnated, and suddenly frowned at he Yining. "Didn''t Li Yunze also be invited to that seminar?" Chapter 1264 He Yining was stunned. "Shouldn''t he go?" Song Tianye also slightly frowned. Why Ning Zhe''s lower lip and thinking about such a meeting, Li Yunze''s identity can''t pass. Unfortunately, why would you rather guess wrong. Li Yunze plans to open another Huakang hospital in the East China Sea or Nanhai city. In the past, this seminar is a way to investigate which place to open in these two cities separated by only one bridge. "Mom, you''re going on a business trip. I can stay with Uncle Si!" One by one, he said hurriedly when he Yining said he would go on a business trip. "Yes, I can take care of one by one." Jin shaosi smiled and said, "I think I should get along well with one by one." "But..." he Yining thought, if not, ask for leave one by one and spend some time with her. "Mom, if you go to work, it will be inconvenient for me to follow." One by one showed great understanding. But he Yining certainly doesn''t think that the little girl is considerate. She totally likes to be with handsome boys. Besides... Ace will spoil and meet her many requirements without limits. "Yining, don''t you trust to give me one by one?" Jin shaosi pretended to be sad and said. "Ace, you know I didn''t mean that." "Then why don''t you agree?" "..." he Yining was asked speechless. Look at the sadness on the faces of yearning one by one and Jin shaosi. Why Ning suddenly felt that he seemed to be the one who had committed the most heinous crime in front of two people. "But you have to work..." he Yining said. During this period of time, she knew the current identity of ASI, who was a wandering child of the Jin family in Brunei. After returning to the Jin family, she sat in her current position step by step. Now back to Los Angeles, we want to develop Jin''s group to Los Angeles. But when I came back, I found what happened to he family, and temporarily acquired his winery and vineyard. It is a very busy thing for these two to re-enter the track. "Lu ruomin and me." Jin shaosi said, "besides, it doesn''t grind people one by one." What else did he Yining want to say? He said pitifully one by one: "Mom, aunt Yanyan has to be on duty. Aunt Zihan has to take pictures secretly. It''s better to be with Uncle Si." Looking at the look of "promise quickly, promise quickly", he Yining finally had to entrust one by one to Jin shaosi. "Yes..." one by one jumped up happily and jumped directly into Jin shaosi''s arms. "Uncle Si, let''s have dessert after sending our mother tomorrow, OK?" "Good!" Jin shaosi answered with a smile. "..." why did Ning twitch at the corners of her mouth and look at her daughter who had no lower limit to eat, she also had nothing to say. The mobile phone rings at the right time. Why Ning shook his head and went to get his mobile phone. Seeing that it was Jane Mo, he picked it up and went to the balcony. "Yining, are you free this weekend?" Jane Mo asked, "if you''re free, take a barbecue at the general villa?" He Yining, somewhat sorry, said, "I have a seminar to hold at the weekend. It is estimated that I will not be here for a few days..." "Well..." Jane Mo paused. "Is that one taken care of? If not, I can take care of it. It''s just that one can play with Xiao Jie." Jane Mo is filled with small thoughts. Although Jane Jie''s proud little Zhengtai will be cute to others except dislike her, it is obvious that it is different to one by one. No guess, childhood sweetheart or something, how much love?! "One by one, I have asked my friends." "Thank you," he Yining said with a smile Jane Mo was a little lost. "Then when you come back, I''ll ask you and one by one to have a barbecue." "OK." Why should I answer. After a few more words, the two women hung up. ¡­¡­ "Dad, try the pasta I made..." Li Jinxi put the plate in front of Li Jiyuan with a flattering face, and then motioned the servant to put a plate for Li Yunze, while he brought a plate for Chen Yu. "Tut Tut, why is my wife so virtuous..." Chen Yu completely ignored the kiss of others and gave Li Jinxi a kiss. Up to now, the love between two people has increased rather than decreased. It seems that they don''t show enough love at any time. "It''s almost enough..." Li Yunze said unbearably. "This dish of pasta is about to be killed by sugar." "Jealousy!" Li Jinxi raised her eyebrows, "Yunze, you are chiguoguo''s jealousy!" She said, looking aside at Chen Yu, "husband, are you right?" "Yes!" Chen Xuan smiled and raised his eyebrows. "He''s jealous." "Yes, I''m so jealous..." Li Yunze hissed coldly. It was clear that he had such thoughts in his heart, but he was dead on his face. Li Jiyuan looked at such a big and bickering child, smiled and shook his head, "Yunze, you are no longer young. Beichen not only has a wife, but also has such a big son, so you don''t hurry up..." paused, "it''s a pity that you are more than a month older than Beichen." "No suitable." Li Yunze said casually. Li Jiyuan heaved a sigh, suddenly thought of something and said, "if the girl of he family chased you, it is estimated that your children are going to junior high school..." Suddenly mentioned he Yining, Li Jinxi subconsciously looked at Li Yunze. Li Yunze stopped eating noodles obviously. "Dad, why did you mention he Yining?" "I''ll see what girl is good." Li Jiyuan said, "how lively I was when I was a child... No one can let you jump. What girl makes you helpless all day." "..." Li Yunze pulled at the corner of his mouth, "Dad, I''m at a loss. This has become the condition for you to choose your daughter-in-law?" As soon as his words came out, Li Jinxi and Li Jiyuan laughed Chen Yu is also evil and looks at Li Yunze opposite. With his understanding of men as a man and his leadership in the entertainment industry He felt that Yunze''s expression at the moment didn''t look like what Jinxi said. He was very upset and he Yining. "When will you be flying tomorrow?" Li Jinxi asked. "More than four o''clock in the afternoon..." "Will you go by yourself?" "Yes." Li Yunze answered. Li Jiyuan knew that Li Yunze had held a national medical seminar in Nanhai city this time. By the way, he chose to set up Huakang branch and explained a few words. The next day, afternoon. Pass the VIP boarding pass and go directly to Yunze. He just passed the security check and saw why Ning hurried to the security check place with the boarding pass he just played Looking at the time, she was rather worried. When she was about to board the plane next to the time, she sighed a little. Why do you prefer to go to economy class in the back? When passing business class, your sight is only instinctively looking left and right, but there is no target positioning under the landing point of your sight. Li Yunze saw her when he Yining walked in When she saw that she only glanced at him, she calmly withdrew, even without any emotion. When she walked back, her heart suddenly blocked up Chapter 1265 The roller of the plane rubs the ground and slowly goes to take off and go to In the radio, there was a sweet voice from the flight attendant. Why would you rather look in the direction of the waiting hall? Your thoughts are a little free. Before, because I found myself pregnant, I hurried to apply for further study in Donghai after the internship. There is a bridge between the East China Sea and the South China Sea. After a rest, he Yining will occasionally take one by one to the South China Sea. I didn''t expect to go there again in a few months after I came back. The plane arrived at Nanhai airport after flying for three hours. Why would you rather follow the person in front of you out of the plane and go to the baggage claim place. "Excuse me..." Suddenly, a man ran to the baggage conveyor belt. Why would he rather hurry to the side of his body to make way, but he tripped over his twisted foot. Suddenly, the whole man lost his balance and fell onto the conveyor belt "Ah!" There was a sound of shock. He Yining scolded the man hundreds of times, but he couldn''t support his body and wouldn''t let him fall. Her only happiness at the moment is that the conveyor belt hasn''t been opened yet. She won''t run with the whole person later Unfortunately, at the last moment, she felt a sense of appointment when she saw the conveyor belt start to rotate. It''s slow, but my thoughts are only for a moment. Seeing that he Yining was about to bring a "human baggage" with the conveyor, her arm was suddenly grabbed, and then her body was dragged back when she was almost next to the conveyor belt "Hum, I''m still in her arms.". Many people looked at this scene and began to envy her before they could sympathize with he Yining. "This man is so handsome..." "I think he''s a good boyfriend!" "Yes, yes..." Some little girls have become infatuated with flowers. After buffering for a while, he Yining hurriedly pushed away the man who saved her. Before he could see the man clearly, he hurriedly said, "thank you..." The remaining word was still choking in his mouth. Why should Ning stare at Li Yunze with a indifferent face like seeing a ghost. How did she... Seem to see Li Yunze?! "What the hell?" Li Yunze frowned slightly when he Yining looked. Why rather swallow, "it''s hell!" "..." Li Yunze frowned more tightly. He Yining bit his lower lip, "thank you." When she finished, she ignored Li Yunze and turned aside to wait for her luggage. Why Ning''s heart can''t tell the feeling. It''s clear that Li Yunze passed her in Huakang that time. She was sad in her heart. Also because of what happened in the car and what Li Yunze said last, she was sad But at this moment, seeing him, she couldn''t help wanting to be attached. People are really cheap! He Yining scolded himself, so that the luggage crossed in front of her, and she didn''t see After another round of waiting, he Yining took his luggage and looked around subconsciously. Li Yunze was gone. "Where do you live?" "Ah!" He Yining jumped away in fright and looked at Li Yunze standing behind her, so that she didn''t see him just now. He asked angrily, "Why are you standing behind me?" Li Yunze wrung his eyebrows and glanced at how he Ning looked. Without saying anything, he turned and left. If you can''t love, don''t pester. What is he doing?! Li Yunze thought so, but his heart was blocked badly. Suddenly Li Yunze stopped and sighed. He felt that he was on the way to death and would never return. Turn around and look at he Yining who is still standing in place. "Go!" Li Yunze''s voice was slightly deep. Why do you rather wear your lips? I don''t know whether to go with Li Yunze In her mind, she told herself that she couldn''t, but in her heart, she strongly wanted to follow... Finally, her heart controlled her limbs. On the way to the hotel, Li Yunze and he Yining didn''t speak. The driver was a middle-aged man. Looking at the two people from the rearview mirror, he couldn''t help but say, "did the couple quarrel?" "We''re not..." why should Ning hurriedly say. "Young man, when you quarrel, you deny the relationship between two people." The driver smiled and said, "in the past, my wife and I were like this." "..." why did Ning pull down the corners of his mouth and secretly glanced at Li Yunze with some embarrassment. Others, like nobody else, sat there with an indifferent face, as if he had nothing to do with the characters under discussion. "In fact, I was angry at that time, but when you get old, you will think of today''s events as a memory..." the driver kept saying there. Finally, he Yining could only pull the corners of his mouth and didn''t know how to respond. Along the way, from the embarrassment of Li Yunze and he Yining who didn''t speak to the embarrassment of the driver''s persuasion After arriving at the hotel, the driver kindly told Li Yunze to let him let more women. Sometimes women, no matter how angry they are, just make more noise. "Well, thank you!" Li Yunze said the only word on the way. When the driver saw that the "child can be taught", he also raised his thumb in appreciation. He Yining looked at Li Yunze strangely. He didn''t know whether his last words were just polite or hidden meaning. But anyway, it doesn''t seem to have anything to do with her First of all, he can''t coax her. Secondly... No need! The most important thing is that even if he wants to coax a woman, he can''t turn to her. He Yining silently took his luggage into the hotel. Li Yunze followed closely and went to the front desk to check in. "Hello," said the front desk after looking at the remaining rooms. "Water bed Couple theme room, can you two?" "We want to live separately!" Why should Ning hurriedly say. water bed? Lovers What the hell is that?! As soon as the front desk heard this, she was embarrassed. "Sorry, I thought you two were..." she blushed and hurried to check the situation of other remaining rooms. "Just a supreme suite." Li Yunze spoke at the right time. The front desk is stunned again. I don''t know what''s going on? Do these two people live together or separately?! "I want an ordinary big bed room..." he Ning said with a corner of his mouth. "There is no ordinary king room, or it is a luxury King Room..." He Yining frowns and lives in a luxury room. She can''t reimburse when she goes back. "Just open a suite." Li Yunze said, took out his mobile phone and dialed a group of numbers. He Yining just wanted to refute Li Yunze''s decision and said that she was looking for another hotel. When he heard him speak after the phone was connected: "President Ma, I''m Li Yunze." "Li Shao, hello..." Ma Guangming asked with a smile, "I don''t know Li Shao''s phone at the moment..." "I came to the South China Sea to hold a seminar," Li Yunze looked at he Yining. She gradually saw panic in her pupils and said slowly with a smile in her mouth, "I just arrived at the hotel. I don''t know what doctor he was at this seminar..." Li Yunze tried to stop talking, but his smile increased. Chapter 1266 He Yining''s face "Shua" changed. When Ma Guangming said to Li Yunze, "it seems that doctor he will attend this time", she quickly turned to the front desk and said, "I want a supreme suite." "OK!" The front desk smiled and saw that it was estimated that the two people were uncomfortable. They had just been divided because of the check-in. Li Yunze smiled at the bottom of his eyes and looked at why he would rather bite his lips. When he prayed with his eyes in his eyes, he slowly opened his mouth: "well, OK, I see!" "Li Shao, is there anything else?" Ma Guangming asked with a grin, "I remember Li Shao''s care for Shuya... As long as I can help Li Shao, I must be duty bound." "No." Li Yunze said indifferently, "that''s it. See you later." "OK, OK, bye!" After Ma Guangming waited for Li Yunze to hang up, he slowly put down his mobile phone. He thought about Li Yunze''s question just now. After thinking about it, he finally looked like a "small man is successful". "Ha ha..." Ma Guangming smiled and nodded in agreement with himself. "It seems that Li Shao really has a mind for he Yining? Tut Tut, it seems that the decentralization of drugs is really the credit of he Yining... We should take more care of Li Shao''s women in the future. If anything happens in the future, it may be good to point out." Ma Guangming finished, and the smile on his face deepened ¡­¡­ After he Yining and Li Yunze checked in, they went to the supreme suite. "Two bedrooms, choose one for yourself." After Li Yunze went in, he changed his shoes and went to the tea room. He Yining was a little bored. "Li Yunze, what do you mean?" Li Yunze ignored it. He just went in and took purified water out of the refrigerator. After unscrewing and drinking a few mouthfuls, he looked at he Yining. "It''s more convenient to see the meeting minutes. You should be able to sort out the part I need to see." "..." why did Ning tilt his head and sneer, "you let me be a free assistant?" She nodded. "OK, even so, you don''t need to call our dean? We live in a hotel. It''s not very convenient for you to see the records. Why do you have to live in a room?" "I''m afraid I''ll eat you..." Li Yunze suddenly bullied nearby. Why should he rather, "en?" Why would you rather lift your lower lip and step back When she retreated, Li Yunze moved forward. Finally, why would she rather back against the door and have no way to retreat. "Yes!" Why rather bite your teeth, "shouldn''t I be on guard against you?" Li Yunze''s eyes gradually deepened, "because the man you want to die for... Defend yourself like a jade?" "Shouldn''t I?" He Yining immediately sneered, "or do you think I''m the kind of fickle, fickle woman in your eyes?" Li Yunze frowned, looked at why he Ning and gradually turned into sadness, and secretly blamed himself. "Don''t worry, I won''t touch you." Li Yunze said, "it was an accident that day..." Then he turned around and took his luggage to one of the bedrooms. He Yining looked at Li Yunze''s back, felt sick in his heart, and turned to another bedroom. After entering the bedroom, she first studied whether she could lock the door from the inside After finding that it was ok, I began to pack my luggage at ease. With a "drop", a text message came from the mobile phone. He Yining opened it. It was sent by Jin shaosi: have you arrived at the hotel? One by one and I have just finished dinner. He Yining immediately called "I just got to the hotel." He Yining said. "I said to arrange it for you. You have to do it yourself..." "Anyway, the hospital will reimburse. Why waste money?" Jin shaosi drooped his eyes and smiled, but there was sour under that smile. The girl he likes doesn''t know how to worry about money all day... But now, he needs to be careful. Even if he knows clearly, those are not worth mentioning for him now. After chatting with he Yining, Jin shaosi asked him to answer the phone one by one. He Yining found a problem, one by one, this little heartless, because she flew happily with Jin shaosi, and I just hope she can go back on a business trip for a few more days. Why do you prefer to have a visual sense of "women don''t want to stay" and suddenly can''t imagine that if you find a handsome husband in the future, will you forget her mother because of her lust for beauty?! "I found that you bought them one by one." He Yining grumbled with Jin shaosi. Jin shaosi smiled and said, "you don''t exclude me one by one. In the future, if you are busy and I take care of her, shouldn''t you be happier?" "But you can''t help take care of it forever..." why would you rather curl your lips. Jin shaosi''s eyes were deep and he wanted to say directly that he wanted to take care of their mother and daughter forever. However, he Yining was afraid that he Yining would be frightened by saying so now. He just smiled and said, "well, if you have time to tangle with this, you might as well hurry to have dinner and have a good rest." "Well, good..." why should he Ning answer, "ace..." "If I say thank you, I''m really going to be angry." Jin shaosi directly interrupted he Yining. He Yining smiled happily and said sincerely, "ace, it''s nice to have you." That feeling is like having the support of her relatives. No matter what she does in the future, she knows that there is personal support behind her. Jin shaosi''s heart was beating wildly because of why Ning''s words Ten years of forbearance and hard work, he just because of a belief One, about the belief of a girl named ''he Yining''! Why would you rather hang up the phone and pack up your things. Until I was interrupted by a knock on the door. He Yining opened the door and saw that Li Yunze had changed into a very casual dress and looked at him with a slight frown. "Give you twenty minutes to go out to dinner." After Li Yunze explained, he turned and left. "..." why did Ning twitch in the corner of her mouth? She always felt that her relationship with Li Yunze was getting more and more strange. After changing clothes, he Yining and Li Yunze left the hotel together. "What to eat?" Why would you rather break the weird embarrassment. "What would you like to eat?" Li Yunze spoke calmly. Why Ning''s mouth moved back and forth and wanted to say to eat spicy hot. Then when he thought that Li Yunze would not eat, he said angrily, "whatever." Li Yunze looked at why he Ning and didn''t speak again. When they got out of the hotel and took a taxi, Li Yunze reported the address. He Yining was a little surprised. Where Li Yunze said, there is a snack street. "How..." why would you rather bear it or ask, "how do you get there?" Li Yunze glanced at he Yining coldly. "Don''t you want to eat spicy hot?" "..." why did Ning twitch at the corner of her mouth? Did she show it clearly? Li Yunze was a little upset because he found a very serious problem Although he used to hate he Yining and now felt strange about her, he found that he knew her every move surprisingly well! "But you don''t like it?" He Yining snorted softly in his nose. "It''s all right. I suddenly think of a previous online paragraph..." Li Yunze said solemnly and calmly, "it''s OK to eat with you." "What piece?" Why Ning asked subconsciously. Li Yunze looked at he Yining, "about spicy hot paragraphs..." He Yining still looked puzzled. Before she asked, the young driver in front of him had made a ''puff'' sound and couldn''t help laughing. He Yining looked at the smiling driver and Li Yunze with an ominous foreboding Chapter 1267 Li Yunze didn''t explain to he Yining. Of course, the driver didn''t say what it was. He Yining looked at Li Yunze and decided to ignore him. Whether he likes spicy hot food or not is none of her business. She just likes it. At the snack street, Li Yunze accompanied he Yining into a well decorated and clean spicy hot shop. After ordering two bottles of coke, he sat on an empty table and let him choose dishes. Handsome men and beautiful women eat spicy hot together, which is easy to attract attention Soon, people in the shop watched Li Yunze and he Yining and gradually began to whisper. He Yining regretted coming to eat spicy hot and had dinner with Li Yunze. The atmosphere was already very strange. Now the two people have zero communication. Coupled with the surrounding voice and eyes, she felt that the spicy hot in her mouth was particularly wrong. After a few bites, why not eat it. "If you don''t want to eat, why don''t you eat?" "Lose weight." Why Ning''s voice said with an unknown anger. Li Yunze''s eyes were deep and didn''t say anything. He just got up and settled the account. Why would you rather stay behind, feel a little depressed, take out your mobile phone and check the so-called "Malatang" while walking. When she saw that the story was actually "a woman went to see a netizen by plane, and the netizen asked her to eat spicy hot for only a few dollars and sleep with her all night", her eyes stared at the boss. He Yining bared his teeth. Unexpectedly, Li Yunze would still watch such news What''s more embarrassing is that the driver obviously knew about it just now, so she was molested by Li Yunze without knowing anything The most important thing is that she didn''t know the story and didn''t flirt back! What a loss! "Bang!" "Well..." "Bang Dang!" He Yining was distracted. Li Yunze suddenly stopped and didn''t find it. His hanging head hit him straight. His mobile phone didn''t hold steady and fell directly to the ground. Looking at the mobile phone that immediately gave face and cracked the screen, why should I rather cry in my heart for a while This is the mobile phone she has only bought for a few months! Although her current life is not too tight, she can''t meet her need to change a mobile phone in a few months?! Li Yunze, you''re fucking born to be my nemesis. "Stupid!" Li Yunze looked at why Ning and went to pick up the mobile phone with a distressed face. Suddenly, there was something wrong in his heart. "I''m stupid!" Why Ning suddenly dried out. She squatted on the ground, her hand still holding the mobile phone, raised her head and stared at Li Yunze, "I''m stupid and don''t hinder you. Take care of me!" Why did Ning angrily pick up the mobile phone and get up and cross Li Yunze to leave. The talent passed Li Yunze and was held by him "Why?" Why rather cold face, "let go." Li Yunze picked his chin and motioned why he Ning. Why Ning subconsciously looked at it and saw that there was a mobile phone store opposite. "Sort out the remuneration for the meeting." Li Yunze opened his mouth. He was subconsciously afraid of why Ning''s self-esteem was damaged. He added, "I just stopped suddenly. It''s also my responsibility. Half of one person and the other half are the reward for sorting out the meeting." Why do you prefer to refuse, but think about why you can work for Li Yunze in vain and appear to be hypocritical. "I''m still like me..." he Yining gestured to his mobile phone. "Then you expect me to buy you Z series?" Li Yunze spoke. He Yining suddenly scolded a ''bitch''! Z series is a high-end limited edition mobile phone developed by dragon Empire, which was once a dazzling one in their circle. Bought a mobile phone as like as two peas, He Yining put the card on the package and imported the contact information. Then he thought to himself, "Li Yunze, have you found it? This is the first time you bought anything for me... Although it is not what you bought." He Yining said it subconsciously, but it didn''t taste in Li Yunze''s ear. In the past, he would rather buy him all kinds of gifts, although he disliked it very much. Because he hates her, he can''t buy things for her Even for he Yining''s birthday party, even if he went to take care of his family''s face, he never bought or gave gifts himself. Why would you rather see Li Yunze not speak, and then realize what he said She pulled the corner of her mouth awkwardly. "That... I''ll talk about it casually." She left the corner of her mouth. "Do you want to eat? Don''t eat back?" "Go back to the hotel and eat!" Li Yunze said, turned and walked outside the mobile phone store. They went back to the hotel and finally ordered food in the Chinese restaurant of the hotel. The hotel is close to the sea. Watching the sea view and eating dinner, it shows a romantic atmosphere He Yining gradually lost his mind, "Li Yunze, do you think there will be good friendship between men and women?" "No!" "I also think..." why Ning''s eyes are getting deeper and deeper. "Therefore, I always feel that we have had so many things before. If we can''t become lovers, we can''t live in peace." Li Yunze suddenly sank his eyes. He Yining took back his sight outside the window and looked at Li Yunze. "A few days ago, you can pretend to be strange. You have to live with me today. No matter what the starting point is, I don''t understand. What do you want to do?" Li Yunze was silent because he didn''t know. "Is that really interesting?" He Yining asked. "What do you want to express?" Li Yunze did not answer the question. Why Ning sighed softly, "Li Yunze, if you don''t know me clearly again, I''ll probably go back to the past, aren''t you afraid?" Paused, "I have my life. You can''t give me the life I want, can you?" Li Yunze''s eyes gradually deepened. He stared at he Yining and suddenly asked, "what if I can give it?" After a pause, he looked at why Ning''s split mood and asked slowly, "are you going to leave the man you can write him a love letter and die for him?" Why Ning opened her mouth slightly. She looked at Li Yunze and didn''t know how true his words were? Or how sarcastic Those who write love letters and die for her are one by one, that is, Li Yunze''s daughter. But now a lie is wrapped by countless lies, so that she doesn''t know how to answer. "Yining," said Li Yunze, whose eyes were already deep and bottomless, "we are not children, nor are we afraid of losing without turning back in adolescence, are we?" Equivocal questions, not only to ask himself, but also to ask why. Li Yunze vaguely found that his attitude towards why he Ning is now is not the attitude of his youth But she has a new lover, doesn''t she? Moreover, the problem between them is not just the problem of love Chapter 1268 Qu Weiwei packed her bags and listened to sister-in-law Feng explain over there. "Mom..." Qu Weiwei was tired of listening. "Can you stop talking about these old things?" Sister-in-law Feng sighed, "Weiwei, I am..." Qu Weiwei stopped the action in her hand and turned, "sometimes I really doubt whether I am your daughter or why Yining is your daughter?" Sister Feng''s face changed. "Weiwei, what are you talking about?" Qu Weiwei turned back and continued to pack up. "Anyway, I''m not alone in my doubt." "..." sister-in-law Feng sank her face. "Are we going to make a DNA? You won''t think that, in fact, you and miss Yining held each other wrong in the hospital. You may be the eldest miss of what family, and miss Yining is my daughter, ah?" "I didn''t say that..." Qu Weiwei''s voice was neither cold nor hot. Looking at Qu Weiwei''s indifferent face, sister-in-law Feng was so angry that she couldn''t say anything. She endured it and turned away from the bedroom. Qu Weiwei''s actions stagnated. Looking back, she saw that sister-in-law Feng''s back had a sense of vicissitudes "Mom," Qu Weiwei said after all, "I don''t mean that. You have to think." Paused, "I said that I went back to Los Angeles because of my work, which has nothing to do with he Yining and Li Yunze..." Sister-in-law Feng stopped, looked back at Qu Weiwei and sighed, "pack up and go to bed early, and take a bus tomorrow morning..." "Good!" Qu Weiwei answered, "good night, mom." "Yes." Qu Weiwei waited until she couldn''t see sister-in-law Feng''s back before she continued to pack her things. Suddenly She paused before taking out the picture frame from the drawer. There are three people on it, she, he Yining and Li Yunze. She studied very well and jumped to the same class as Li Yunze. Because of this, she also had more opportunities to communicate with him. Why would rather often skip classes and find her from junior high school to senior high school It''s no secret that I''m looking for her, but I''m looking for Li Yunze. From small to large, she grew up in the halo of he Yining. No matter where she went out or where she was, she couldn''t get rid of her being the daughter of what servant. In short, she should also be called "Miss" by he Yining. Therefore, she studies hard and tries to make herself an elegant person Qu Weiwei looked at he Yining, who was standing between her and Li Yunze, laughing brightly and cunningly. The corners of her mouth gradually filled with a sneer, even the bottom of her eyes. "Yining, no one can always be high above..." Qu Weiwei''s voice was slow with a strange smell, and the corners of her mouth evoked a gloomy smile, "... Isn''t it?!" ¡­¡­ Why would you rather lie in bed and toss and turn after taking a bath. Xu is because of the conversation with Li Yunze at dinner, Xu is because Li Yunze lives next door After tumbling several times, he Yining turned over and sat up in some anxiety. In the dark, why Ning drooped his eyes and sighed, thought about it, took his mobile phone and dialed yanmiao''s number. "What time is it? Haven''t you slept yet?" Yan Miao is on duty in the emergency room and asks after checking the time. "Yan Yan..." he Yining''s voice is a little dull in the night, "Li Yunze has also come to the seminar." "Really?" Yan Miao asked back, "and then?" "We took the same plane and stayed in the same hotel..." "Just don''t tell me you live in the same room." Yan Miao got up, took the cup and took the water. He Yining was silent. Yanmiao twitched at the corner of his mouth, "he Yining, you won''t tell me that you live in the same room!" "Well..." "I wipe!" Yan Miao couldn''t stand turning his eyes. "He Yining, are you crazy?" Paused, "no, if you are in the same room, shouldn''t you be in gentle village now? How can you call me..." "What do you think?" He Ning turned his eyes. "We live in a suite. A room is not a bedroom." "I can''t blame that I think I''m biased..." yanmiao glanced. "According to your urination, don''t you just throw it down?" "..." why did Ning droop his shoulders and feel a little weak. Yanmiao put down his water cup, sat down on the sofa, lay lazily down and said, "it''s not that you don''t understand what you''re still awake so late, it''s definitely that you''re unwilling to fall down!" He ningmiao can''t stand the silence at night. It''s time for her to talk to him again "What do you mean by Li Yunze?" He Yining asked. "I''d like to know if anything has happened between you recently?" Yanmiao thinks that Li Yunze has changed a little fast. If it''s just because of the kiss at the academic meeting, she doesn''t think it''s possible. He Yining thought about it and said what happened in the car that night. Yan Miao widened his eyes, as if it was impossible to believe that Li Yunze would do that to he Yining Not to mention Li Yunze''s attitude towards Yining, that is, more than one bottle of red wine. For him who is often free in the wine field, it can''t be because of his behavior after drinking. Most importantly, Li Yunze finally satirized Yining''s words "Yining," yanmiao endured and assumed boldly, "do you think Li Yunze really has any idea about you subconsciously because he is used to you?" "Will you?" Why rather curl up your legs, put your chin on your knees, and your face is completely at a loss. Yan Miao was silent. "If you''re not afraid of being doomed again, Yining, do you want to try again?" Paused, "no matter whether one wants his own father so much, but he is one''s father. If you two finally have results, you are complete and complete, aren''t you?" Why did Ning numbly fan her eyelashes? She''s a little empty at the moment. Now, she is afraid of being hurt. But she didn''t go to the end with Li Yunze. She thought it would be her lifelong regret After closing his eyes, he Yining said, "I don''t know." "No matter what you decide," yanmiao said, "if you decide to let go, Zihan and I are the backing of you and one by one. If you want to continue, we are also your harbor. We can always spend happiness and sadness together." Why should I answer the voice rather stuffy. "Well, there will be a seminar tomorrow. It''s very late. Go to bed!" "Good night!" "Ann!" He Yining hung up the phone, stared at his new mobile phone and was slightly distracted. After putting it down, he planned to go to the bathroom. As she walked to the bathroom, she thought in her mind whether to let go even if she was injured. When she got to the bathroom, she didn''t notice that the light inside was on and opened the door directly Li Yunze is small, or the kind of ongoing He turned to look at the door and saw why he was looking at the place where he was discharging wate Chapter 1269 Why Ning Mu Ran''s eyes and Li Yunze''s face Li Yunze''s face crossed strangely. When he was in progress, it was impossible to stop suddenly. "Ah --" Why should Ning subconsciously scream, "Li Yunze, why don''t you lock the door when you go to the bathroom?" Li Yunze''s face sank, and it was over. When he cleaned up and went to wash his hands, he said indifferently: "why Yining, the lights in the bathroom are on. Won''t you want to knock on the door first?" When he Yining heard this, he reacted that the light was really on. He Yining looked embarrassed at that time. Why can she do this every time she meets Li Yunze... Unreliable?! Thinking of what I just saw, why Ning''s face is getting redder and redder. Li Yunze looked at he Yining, who was frozen in place, turned off the water indifferently and said, "do you want to go to the bathroom or block the door and don''t let me out?" "Who, who''s blocking you?!" Why rather bite your teeth, the more red your face, loosen the side of the door handle and open your body. The light reflected from the bathroom hit he Yining''s face, which became particularly charming against the moist red on her face. Li Yunze''s eyes were deep and narrowed slightly. At that moment, he looked at why Ning''s slightly biting lips. He couldn''t help but want to kiss her "I''m going to the bathroom. Are you leaving?" Why would you rather see Li Yunze didn''t move? Because he was shy, he stared at him and asked. Li Yunze''s vision deepened, and he could even clearly feel the fiery heat in his lower abdomen. "Cough..." Li Yunze coughed awkwardly and wanted to go out without saying anything. But people suddenly stopped when they passed he Yining. He Yining became nervous when his breath was out of control. He stared at Li Yunze with a pair of eyes. He didn''t know what he was doing when he suddenly stopped. Li Yunze tilted his head and dropped his sight on he Yining''s chest He Yining didn''t react. When he reacted, he quickly hugged his chest and shouted, "Li Yunze, where are you looking?" Li Yunze couldn''t help laughing at why he Ning blew his hair. He Yining was angry, embarrassed and ashamed. At this moment, he wanted to really find a crack to get in. Li Yunze leaned forward slightly, his voice was not big or small, but said slowly with evil Charm: "it''s not good to wear that to sleep at night, but... When you suggest it, you should pay attention." Why is Ning''s face ''Teng'' for a moment, and the red one is about to drip blood. "Obscene!" Why rather bite your teeth and say. Li Yunze shrugged, "even..." He got up, took a meaningful look at why he Ning, turned and left. He Yining thought for a long time about the meaning of "even" left by Li Yunze. Finally, she reflected. She looked at him, but she was seen not wearing bra. Although she was sleepy, she could see the roundness of the outline. Why should I rather help my forehead? Suddenly I feel like I want to die Why can she be so embarrassed when her IQ is not online in front of Li Yunze?! Why would you rather sit on the toilet and look at the reflection of yourself on the ceramic tile? The more you want to think, the more humiliating you feel. "I don''t understand what I want to live with. I''m not with you again. We are not lovers. I''m not your real assistant..." why rather make complaints about "why should we live together?" He Yining hung his head powerlessly, his fingers clasped together, and his mouth was full of words. "Anyway, you don''t suffer..." why would you rather bite your lower lip and still have a hot face? "Besides, what toilet do you go to if you don''t sleep so late ¡­¡­ As soon as Li Yunze went to bed, he felt his ears burning. He frowned slightly. Although it was not scientific to say that his ears would be hot behind his back, he was sure that he was talking about him. Thinking of why Ning was embarrassed just now, Li Yunze couldn''t help but overflow a shallow smile from the corners of his mouth. No wonder Beichen occasionally teases Jian mo. it turns out... It will make you feel comfortable. Li Yunze turned off the bedside lamp and closed his eyes. In my mind, I can''t shake it. He Yining just looked like. Maybe he hated her so much that he never took a serious look at her Now, without the mania in adolescence, people have calmed down and found her good. Li Yunze thought and slowly opened his eyes. He must now think clearly that if he wants to go on with what he wants to do next, he must get rid of everything in the past. Otherwise, he should not let such a relationship unclear. In the dark, Li Yunze''s sight gradually became deep "Alas!" Li Yunze sighed and closed his eyes again. Some things can''t be thought about. Once you think about it, it''s an inextricable knot the second day. He Yining and Li Yunze went to the seminar together. The difference between people can be quickly distinguished every time on an important occasion. He Yining has been pushed away by a pile of people who flatter, flatter or flatter Li Yunze. She looked at Li Yunze, who looked very gentle and elegant. In fact, Li Yunze was completely alienated all over. Suddenly, she had some evil interests and hoped that he had been surrounded by people. Let your clothes, let those people disgust you! Why would you rather turn your mouth and sit down in the back seat. She took out the book and wrote love letters from her mother one by one "What are you writing?" When he Yining was writing seriously, Li Yunze''s voice suddenly came from her side, which frightened her to look at him reflexively. At the same time, she closed the book and looked frightened. Li Yunze frowned slightly, "what do you write... So afraid of me seeing?" He Yining''s heart beat wildly because he was afraid of being seen. "No, nothing?!" Li Yunze sat down on one side. "Bring it to me..." he paused. "You''re so afraid I see it. How do I think you''re writing and scolding me?" "No!" He Yining hurriedly held the book in his arms and rubbed it against a seat next to him. The more nervous she was, the more Li Yunze felt strange. Li Yunze stretched out his hand, looked at the book he Ning was holding, and gave a sign in his eyes. Why rather bite her lips? If it was before, or if it wasn''t the love letter she wrote to 11, she would subconsciously give him the book under the sight of Li Yunze. He Yining''s appearance made Li Yunze, who had only been filled with playfulness, look a little deeper. With his understanding of her, the things inside must be what she doesn''t want him to see In other words, that''s her secret to him! He Yining had no secrets for Li Yunze before "You offered it to me..." Li Yunze''s voice slowly overflowed. "Or did I get the book after I did something to you in public?" Chapter 1270 He Yining looked at Li Yunze with a wary face. She gently bit her lower lip and held the book closer subconsciously. Li Yunze looked at why Ning was on guard against him, and his heart was slightly unhappy. I don''t know why, he suddenly remembered what he Yining seemed to be writing at the last academic meeting in Los Angeles. Finally, inadvertently, he heard her say what love letter she wrote?! "I''m so afraid I''ll see..." Li Yunze lowered his eyes and glanced lightly. Why should he rather hold the book, "why, who wrote the love letter inside?" He Yining because if Li Yunze had a deep meaning, his face was a little red, "you care about me?!" She made a promise and wanted to move to one side of the chair Just when why Ning moved, Li Yunze''s hand suddenly extended to her. She subconsciously thought he came to grab the book, and the movement was bigger. Then, tragedy... Embarrassment! He Yining looked at Li Yunze with her back to the back, so she didn''t know that there was someone in the next seat. Because Li Yunze suddenly stretched out her hand, she made a big move and sat directly on the man''s leg. Why Ning took a smoke from the corner of his mouth and looked at the confused and embarrassed face of the man sitting by himself. His face was "Teng" for a while, and the red one was just like the cooked shrimp. "Sorry, sorry..." why Ning blushed and hurried up. The person who was seated pulled his mouth awkwardly, "it doesn''t matter... It''s just a beautiful woman." "Ha ha..." why did Ning dry smile twice, try to ignore the eyes projected from the conference room, return to the previous seat and sit down, staring at Li Yunze with resentment in his eyes. Li Yunze said he was innocent. "I just wanted to pull you, but you hid too fast." "..." he Yining became more angry. "You don''t have a long mouth? How can I know if you want to pull me or rob my book?" Li Yunze looked at he Yining who protected the book from beginning to end. His eyes were deep again. He took back his sight and looked ahead and said, "naive!" "I''m childish..." why did Ning mutter and put the book back in his bag? Li Yunze interrupted him when he just wanted to write love letters one by one. In the next few days, Li Yunze didn''t appear in the next few days except the first day. He Yining takes notes carefully every day. Xu took demerit notes for Li Yunze when she was at school. She knows his habits very well. Even after several years, she is not unfamiliar at all. I can''t see the seminars during the day. I can still see them when I go back to the hotel every night. He Yining didn''t ask Li Yunze what he did during the day. In the evening, they ate together and went shopping together. Occasionally, they went to the cafe to read and surf the Internet. Life is... Very "lovers"! Why should Ning support the desktop with his arm, hold his chin in his hand, tilt his head and look out of the window, and the corner of his mouth gradually overflows with a smile. That kind of smile, in the light of the cafe is not very bright, hazy, has a different taste. Li Yunze was reading and inadvertently raised his eyes. His eyes just fell on why Ning''s dreamy face. Gradually, he forgot his reaction and looked at her like this He Yining looked at the night outside and thought about the "illusory" couple life in recent days. Li Yunze looked at he Yining like this. Gradually, he seemed to forget the years... But he seemed to precipitate the years. "Li Yunze..." he Yining, full of youth, shouted at him shamelessly under the audience in the hall, "I love you!" "Yunze, I''m sick... Well, I''m sick here!" He Yining suddenly took his hand and put it on the position of his heart before he reacted. "I''m sick here... Lovesickness." Li Yunze only remembered the moment when he was angry. Although he is a doctor, in some ways, there is no difference between men and women. But when his hand touched the softness of he Yining''s development, he immediately blushed with embarrassment. Gu Beichen laughed at this matter for a long time Li Yunze''s mouth gradually overflowed with a helpless smile. It turned out that he remembered so many things about why Yining. When he Yining took back his sight, Li Yunze quickly lowered his eyes and pretended to continue reading. He Yining looked at Li Yunze, who was highly serious about the book from beginning to end, and said he was a little lost. When she was young, she would mumble to Li Yunze that she really wanted to be the book in his hand Of course, now she thinks so, but she won''t say it. One is that she is no longer a little girl. In addition... She doesn''t have the mentality that newborn calves were not afraid of tigers when she was a child. He Yining got up and went to the bathroom. Just after she left, the mobile phone on the table suddenly rang Li Yunze put down the book, first looked at the direction why he Ning left, and then attached himself to get the mobile phone. ''ace'' is displayed on the mobile phone! Li Yunze frowned slightly. First, he flipped his mobile phone and cancelled the bell. Then his eyes fell on the name of ''ace'' again When the call was about to stop, Li Yunze didn''t know why he wanted to connect. When he reacted, his mobile phone had been put in his ear. "Yining..." a nice male voice came over from the other end of the phone, showing a faint doting, "one..." Li Yunze sank his eyes slightly. "She went to the bathroom." Li Yunze''s words just interrupted what Jin shaosi wanted to say. Jin shaosi was silent at first. Then he looked at one by one and wanted to come and grab the mobile phone. He quickly motioned her to silence and whispered to one at the place where he covered the microphone: "you play for a while, huh?" One by one, the ghost turned his eyes. The little guy thought about how Jin shaosi wanted to cultivate feelings with he Yining. Although she wanted her mother, she decided to give in to a father like Jin shaosi in order to have a father. Because only uncle Si and his mother are together, then she will have a father in the future Not only be good to mom and her, but also a good-looking father! "Good!" One by one, he opened his mouth silently and said, "come on" with his little hand. Jin shaosi rubbed his head one by one with a smile and turned to the balcony. "Li Yunze?" Jin shaosi spoke immediately. Li Yunze frowned slightly, "are you..." "It doesn''t matter who I am," Jin shaosi''s voice showed the domineering spirit raised in the Jin family over the years. "The important thing is that since you didn''t have any thoughts about Yining in those years, don''t disturb her life now." "In what capacity did you tell me this?" Li Yunze was cold. "By the," said Jin shaosi, with his eyes deep, his eyes falling out of the window and his voice filled with awe inspiring, "I love her!" Chapter 1271 Li Yunze immediately narrowed his eyes, "Oh?" With a light sigh of disdain. Jin shaosi raised his eyebrows, crossed the corner of his mouth with a sneer and said, "let me guess..." he paused deliberately before continuing, "what will Li Shao, who has always been high in front of Yining, say next?" Li Yunze leaned coldly and slowly on the chair, didn''t speak, just waited. "Li Shao will say to me," said Jin shaosi in a quiet voice. "I love Yining, and I need Yining to love me... Right?" Li Yunze''s eyes gradually became dark. He didn''t speak, as if he disdained to refute, but he was unable to refute. Jin shaosi''s voice was penetrating and continued: "stay away from me. Since you don''t like it and can''t get together because of some things, don''t provoke her!" "You seem... To know what''s going on between me and Yining?" Li Yunze didn''t get angry because of Jin shaosi''s warning, but instinctively disliked another man to have a posture of how to be peaceful. Jin shaosi snorted coldly, didn''t answer, and said, "wait a minute, I''d rather go to the bathroom. Please ask her to call back..." he paused, "I think Li Shao won''t be childish not to say, or even delete the call records." "You''re not me. How do you know I won''t?" Li Yunze sneered. Jin shaosi smiled. The smile was very shallow, but Li Yunze on the other side of the phone still felt it. "If you''re not afraid to add congestion..." Jin shaosi said half a sentence, smiled without temperature and hung up the phone directly. Li Yunze''s eyebrows twisted as he listened to the beep of hanging up from his mobile phone. Is this the man I saw at Shuya hospital that day? Why would you rather write a love letter? One question after another, Li Yunze didn''t know what to think. Waiting for the reaction, he had deleted the record of the call with Jin shaosi just now. Li Yunze frowned tightly and looked subconsciously in the direction of going to the bathroom Seeing why Yining just turned out, Li Yunze hurriedly put the mobile phone back in place like a thief. He Yining didn''t find anything wrong with Li Yunze. While she sat down, she looked at the book he was still reading. She didn''t know what she muttered and called the waiter for a glass of water. He Yining didn''t bother Li Yunze to read, but just picked up his mobile phone Li Yunze looked up and down slightly, looked at why Ning took his mobile phone and frowned slightly after opening the screen. Such a subtle expression made Li Yunze feel a little uncomfortable. He even remembered the man on the phone for the first time and said he wanted to find Tiandu. He Yining looked at the time and saw that Mr. Jin didn''t give her a phone or text message. After thinking about it, he got up with his mobile phone "Just finished going to the bathroom..." Li Yunze said while he Yining got up and pretended to turn the page inadvertently, "is this going again?" "I''ll make a call." He Yining didn''t think much about the answer, and didn''t hear the discomfort in Li Yunze''s tone at all. Li Yunze''s face sank immediately. He wanted to shout he Yining, but he held it back again Why did Ning call when she got out of the coffee shop, because there were several pots of green plants in the glass at the door. She subconsciously stood there, talking on the phone and gently wringing the leaves of the green plants. "Why didn''t you take the initiative to call me today?" He Yining asked with a smile. Jin shaosi''s eyes were deep, and there was a cold hiss at the bottom of his eyes. Li Yunze went back alive after so many years... He really deleted the call records. "It was supposed to be a fight..." Jin shaosi said, looking at the players playing LEGO one by one. "They are playing LEGO one by one. One of the models in their hands can''t spell, but they are still persistent." Naturally, he won''t give Yining that he just called and didn''t have a call record because Li Yunze deleted it What is Li Yunze''s mind now? He can''t guarantee it. But both of them went to the seminar. At the moment, they are still together. Whether it''s because Yining is pestering Li Yunze or because of anything, he needs to be on guard, isn''t he?! Why not be surprised? Sometimes she is as stubborn as her. If you want to do something, you must finish it. "I have to go to school tomorrow. You told her to go to bed early." Why would you rather explain. Jin shaosi answered and changed the subject, asking what he Yining had done in recent days and when the seminar would end. He Yining and Jin shaosi spoke easily. From time to time, because of his words, he rubbed his small feet on the ground Li Yunze has been looking at her through the glass window since he Yining went out. I don''t know if it''s because he liked to hang around in front of him so much that he didn''t have to think about what each of her small movements represented. For example, at the moment, why is it rather coy? It''s a sign of happiness. Li Yunze was very blocked, as if a ball of cotton was blocked in his heart, which made him uncomfortable and wanted to have a heart operation directly. Time passes minute by minute He Yining not only didn''t finish talking on the phone, but even the more he talked, the happier he was. Look The smiling spring flowers are bright and charming... Don''t look at your age. Have you had the time to be coquettish with men?! Li Yunze thought more and more angry, subconsciously raised his wrist and looked at the time. He Yining has been talking on the phone with that man for more than ten minutes! Li Yunze''s face was dark. When he Yining talked on the phone for nearly half an hour, he directly settled the account, got up and went out Li Yunze opened the door, and his mind controlled behavior took a look at why Ning. He wanted to grab her mobile phone and hang it up. No matter whether he would do it or not, Li Yunze didn''t control himself and walked to her side "Of course I love you..." he Yining said, rolling green plants in his hands and gently shaking his body with a smile in his mouth. Li Yunze suddenly stopped. He looked at he Yining. He didn''t know what the other party said. He looked satisfied and smiled. A handsome face was shrouded in a deep haze. "Kiss..." he Yining said to each one, "mmm, mmm!" "..." Li Yunze narrowed his eyes gloomily, turned and left with big steps. That man is right. He deleted the call record, which is the real reason to add congestion to himself. Li Yunze didn''t cross the corner. Why did Ning Cai hang up after saying goodbye to the reluctant one by one. She went back to the cafe, but there was no Li Yunze. "Hello," he Yining called a waiter, "where''s the man at the table just now?" "The gentleman checked out and left..." As soon as he Yining listened, he twisted his eyebrows, turned and walked out, and dialed Li Yunze''s mobile phone Chapter 1272 He Ningze took out the phone, but he didn''t choke when he wanted to connect it. Looking at the prompt in the call, Li Yunze frowned slightly and put the mobile phone in his ear "Where are you?" He Yining asked, "why did I call and you disappeared?" "Tired, come up and sleep." Li Yunze''s voice was a little dull. "I didn''t see you tired when I called... In the twinkling of an eye, you''ll be alone!" Why rather muttered, "hum, you didn''t wait for me when you came out together." Li Yunze''s eyes were deep. "Why don''t you say how long you''ve been on the phone?" "No, just ten minutes..." why would you rather curl your lips. Li Yunze''s sight deepened. He just hummed coldly and cut off the phone directly. Ten minutes? He Yining was talking to the man. He thought the time passed quickly. It was more than half an hour or even longer. He thought it was more than ten minutes? Li Yunze opened the door of the suite and slammed it directly. Went to his bedroom, changed his clothes and came out to take a bath. He Yining came in with the same anger The two men looked at each other, Li Yunze took back his sight indifferently, turned and went to the bathroom. Why did Ning''s mouth just open and he choked back by Li Yunze''s sudden indifference before he could speak. Another Bang came. Why was Ning subconsciously surprised? She looked blankly at the bathroom door and said, "what''s crazy all of a sudden?" Snorted, why would you rather go back to your house She listened to what was happening outside and felt inexplicably unhappy. It''s clear that the relationship between the two people is pretty good these days. Why did they return to before liberation for no reason?! Why would you rather lean on the door, hang your eyes and rub your feet on the ground Hearing that the bathroom outside was opened and closed, and then after a while of not too heavy footsteps, there was a not too light sound of closing the door. Why did Ning take his bathrobe and angrily go out of the bedroom. When I passed Li Yunze''s room, why would I rather stop, look at the closed door, and have an impulse to knock on the door Well, I just want to ask, what''s wrong with him? Like a woman, her face changes as she says. I don''t know. I thought my aunt was coming! Why Ning was thinking of being happy, Li Yunze suddenly opened the door and saw her face with the expression "I''ll be happy if I''m angry with you". Jun''s face turned black again in an instant. He Yining was swept by the cold air, shivered secretly and suddenly returned to his mind. When she found Li Yunze looking at her, she quickly turned around and ran into the bathroom like seeing something terrible Li Yunze''s face can''t describe how dark it is. A real person is shrouded in a layer of haze. He Yining came out after grinding in the bathroom for a long time, thinking that Li Yunze said he was tired and must have gone back to his room to sleep. But then I opened the door and a faint voice with a strange smell came "Come and have a drink!" He Yining looked in the direction of Li Yunze and saw him sitting on the sofa lazily, with one arm casually on the back of the sofa, his slender legs overlapping, and his other hand holding a goblet on his legs. The whole person was full of perplexing breath. He Yining was still holding a towel in her hand. She bit her lip and looked at Li Yunze''s arm on the sofa Alas, she really wants to sit there and lean on his shoulder Why do you want to be more coy? Looking at the empty place around Li Yunze, you keep changing complex emotions in your eyes. Li Yunze looked over and saw why he Ning''s wordless protest of "I don''t want to have a drink with you". His face was a little wrong. "Come here!" He Yining returned to her senses, because she had just thought "too much", and she suddenly felt guilty. "If you let me go, I''ll go. I have no face..." why did Ning hum and turn around to go back to the room. She doesn''t like drinking, although her father used to be in the wine business. "He Yining!" The voice of gnashing teeth overflowed Li Yunze''s lips, showing the forbearance before anger. Why did Ning Xin suddenly ''clatter'', she hesitated and stopped to look at Li Yunze, looked at his dissatisfied appearance, gave his lips without backbone, and said in a voice: "I want to blow my hair..." Li Yunze looked at why Ning''s long hair was wet and twisted together. "Go over there and I''ll blow it for you!" When Li Yunze said this sentence, he was very casual. Even he didn''t feel anything wrong, but he stood up and immediately felt that such behavior was too... Intimate! The atmosphere is somewhat ambiguous and awkward. Why would you rather wriggle with a towel in your hand She wanted to refuse, but... Her body had moved to the place indicated by Li Yunze. Alas Why Yining? Why Yining, when can you be more backbone and arrogant in front of Li Yunze?! Why should Ning hang her eyes and think, suddenly a sound of "be careful" came, and she had bumped into the three legged table with decorations on one side Then, the bronze ornament fell down with a dull sound, a sprained ankle and a loss of balance. He Yining didn''t think of anything else at this moment. He just felt resigned. Anyway, in front of Li Yunze, she has never been embarrassed In a flash of thought, why did Ning Yuguang have a figure passing by? Then she was hugged and heard a dull hum of ''Oh''. He Yining forgot the reaction. She felt Li Yunze''s body suddenly lean against her because of external force, and her face turned white in an instant. "Li Yunze..." Why Ning hurriedly wanted to stand still and see Li Yunze who was hit by the decoration, but because she sprained her foot before, she sprained again because she was too anxious and too hard, and her body lost balance again Li Yunze rushed over and only had time to hold he Yining who was going to fall. He was hit on the waist. Before he could stabilize himself, he Yining lost his balance again and fell to the ground with her in his arms But even so, Li Yunze subconsciously put his arm around why Ning padded to the bottom, and there was a cushion when she fell down. However, Li Yunze''s arm was suddenly pressed down by gravity, and his waist was just smashed again. The pain from front to back made his body unstable and directly pressed on he Yining Four eyes relative, originally worried, but at that moment, it suddenly became ambiguous under the strange. He Yining forgot his weight and Li Yunze forgot his pain At this moment, the two seemed to forget everything. Suddenly Li Yunze attached his face and he Yining instinctively closed his eyes. At the moment when the lips of the two people were gently pasted, there was no omen... The dry heat of crazy trickle poured out of their bodies! Chapter 1273 The dry firewood hooks the fire, and the charming scenery under ambiguity rises in the room Li Yunze and he Yining kissed crazily, and the entanglement, sucking and hooking of lips and tongues made their bodies hot. A cry of "um" came Such an emotional voice is simply ecstasy for men. Li Yunze forgot to think, and his hands began to wander. Wherever he went, he Yining''s body trembled gently. Because just after taking a bath, he Yining just wore a bathrobe. The vacuum inside made Li Yunze a little unscrupulous. At this moment, why don''t you want to think and Li Yunze? It will make you more doomed. Li Yunze also forgot to think. He Yining now has a man who can write love letters, and he doesn''t want to think about the consequences of him Both of them have "forgotten" everything. The war is imminent under the hot entanglement! At this moment, whether Li Yunze or he Yining, it seems that they have been greatly satisfied Just He looked at why he was rather emotional, with unspeakable loss and sadness in his heart. Although he is a doctor, it is clear that the film may not be damaged by things between men and women, but may be damaged by some violent exercise. I don''t know why. He thinks the reason he found for himself is a little ridiculous After all, that''s not likely. Even he subconsciously thought that he Yining''s first time was not an accident, but a real man. Li Yunze gradually blocked up in his heart, and his actions became unscrupulous. Night, very long! But in the eyes of two people embracing each other, this night has never been short. Why did Ning wake up when Li Yunze was no longer around She looked at the time, but it was almost noon! Why Ning suddenly sat up and found that she was in Li Yunze''s bed Then look at the kiss marks on your body. Why would you rather ''brush'' it? Your face is red and hot. God, they were awake yesterday Even one night! Thinking of Li Yunze''s madness last night, why Ning''s face is getting redder and redder, which seems to be bleeding. He bit his lips. Why would he rather look around and react? It was too fierce last night, and the bathrobe was directly scratched outside Why would you rather get out of bed? First listen and make sure there is no movement in the house, then gently open the door. When she went to pick up her bathrobe, suddenly, a voice came He Yining kept the action of wanting to attach himself. Looking at Li Yunze who came back from the outside, he forgot his reaction for a moment. When she saw Li Yunze''s vision slipping, she suddenly woke up, hurriedly took her bathrobe and put it on in a panic. The whole person was hot because of shyness. "You..." "Everyone is an adult," he Yining hurriedly interrupted what Li Yunze was going to say. "If you are dry and burning, you will be empty. Don''t remember what happened last night." She hurried to the bathroom, ignoring the tingling in her ankle. Li Yunze''s face was a little heavy. Looking at the back of why he would rather run away, a pair of eyes knew the horror. He Yining, is the relationship between men and women so casual now? Is it true that the situation of any man last night is the behavior of an adult under the so-called "emptiness"?! He thought maybe they could try... But obviously why would rather leave last night alone. Li Yunze clenched his hand and listened to the sound of the shower. His heart twisted together. Originally, I came back to see if he Yining woke up, and then my mood for lunch disappeared. I immediately turned around and left Why didn''t I see Li Yunze in the next few days. Just come back every day, he Yining put his notes on his desk. The next day, she will find that the position has been moved. She knows that Li Yunze has seen it. Tomorrow is the last day of the seminar. Li Yunze hasn''t appeared since the first day. Naturally, everyone is not surprised that he is such a big man in the medical field. If you can attend, everyone will already feel that this trip is worth it He Yining looked at Li Yunze''s room, raised his lower lip, left a note for him, took a bath and went back to his room. It was already two o''clock in the morning when Li Yunze came back. Because of the settlement of Huakang, he is very busy these days. However, no matter how busy he is, even if he is in Donghai City, he will come back What are you doing back here? ha-ha! Li Yunze sneered at herself. Obviously she was angry because of her so-called "emptiness", but she came back. People are really cheap! Li Yunze picked up his notes and flipped them casually. He put them aside without looking at them. He knows what will be discussed in the seminar and doesn''t need to read any notes From the beginning, it was just his wrong set of nerves. When he reacted, he could only continue. After taking the convenience glued to one side, I saw that it said: the seminar will be over tomorrow morning, and I booked a plane back in the afternoon. Li Yunze looked at the words on it and gradually tightened his hands. Looking back, my sight fell on he Yining''s room, and my mouth gradually became a straight line. I only heard a slight sound of "stabbing", and the note I had held had been held in Li Yunze''s hand ¡­¡­ The next day, the seminar concluded that Li Yunze was present, and everyone showed strong joy as on the first day. Why should I rather sit in the back position and look at it with my lips. I haven''t seen it for a few days. It''s still Li Yunze, who is supported by the stars and the moon. I''m a little distracted. Li Yunze should be facing the people who surrounded him. When his eyes crossed he Yining, he saw what she wanted to write on the book she had not shown him before ha-ha! Secretly sneered, and Li Yunze took back his sight. After the seminar, everyone left one after another. He Yining waited until he had put his seminar on record, and Li Yunze had disappeared. She left him a note last night. She didn''t find it on the table in the morning. He should have seen her go back to Los Angeles in the afternoon?! Why Ning left his mouth and went back to the hotel, looked at Li Yunze''s bedroom and silently packed his luggage. For more than a week, from a very "couple" at the beginning, to an unexpected hug that night, and then to "like a stranger"... Why do you think the life between her and Li Yunze is sometimes too slow and sometimes too fast. Why Ning looked out of the small window, surrounded by some noisy voices of the people boarding the plane. She looked back and took out her cell phone to turn it off. Just before the shutdown, she sent a text message to Li Yunze Li Yunze just checked his boarding pass and his mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. As he walked, he took out his mobile phone and crossed the text message He Yining: that... Things that should not be taken to heart. I think we''d better not put them away when we return to Los Angeles. Chapter 1274 Li Yunze looked at the text message, gradually deepened his eyes and stopped. There were the last few people who boarded the plane around, but Li Yunze looked at the content of the message and gradually fell into another world. After a while, Li Yunze didn''t laugh at the cold overflow until the screen automatically darkened. I don''t know whether it''s because of he Yining''s short message or to himself. He Yining Li Yunze lowered his hand and looked forward slowly. The self mockery at the corners of his mouth increased a little, and at the right time, his heart became empty. Is it really because of "losing", but he cares?! Sitting on the plane, Li Yunze''s thoughts became more and more blocked, as if all the nerve lines were in disorder. His mind was all about why he hurried to get rid of the appearance after that night and the short message just now. When the plane arrived in Los Angeles, it was almost five o''clock in the afternoon. It was summer. Although Los Angeles was not as hot as the seaside city, the heat in the air also made people a little anxious. Li Yunze went to the bathroom to pick up his luggage. As soon as he took it out, he saw he Yining in front of him and hurried to a man "Ace?!" He Yining looked at Mr. Jin in surprise and ran to him with the suitcase. Jin shaosi came forward, first took he Yining''s box, and then gently stroked he Yining''s hair, which was a little messy when he slept on the plane. "Why are you here?" He Yining asked, "didn''t I tell you I''d just go back by bus?" "Didn''t I see my text message?" Jin shaosi asked. Why Ning was stunned and suddenly remembered that he didn''t turn on the machine after he got off the machine, "forgot to turn on the machine." "I knew..." Jin shaosi finished he Yining''s hair. He Yining smiled awkwardly, "let''s go. You can pick up one by one from school." "Yes." Jin shaosi answered and looked up slightly to see Li Yunze not far away. Secretly sneered, he quietly took back his sight, took the drag box in one hand and he Yining''s hand in the other, and went out He Yining didn''t care too much about Jin shaosi pulling her like this. He Yining used to do the same when they were in the vineyard. Jin shaosi is subconscious about he Yining. She thinks she is a relative. Naturally, there is nothing wrong. But such behavior greatly stimulated Li Yunze. He only felt that the hand held together was dazzling! A bang came suddenly, followed by an apology. Li Yunze looked at his box lying on the ground, then looked at the people on one side, hurriedly picked up the box, apologized and frowned slightly. "Sorry, sorry!" Li Yunze screwed off his eyebrows again. Without saying anything, he pulled his box and left Li Yunze went to the parking lot, picked up his car and went straight back to Li''s villa all the way. As soon as I entered the door, I saw Li Jinxi and Chen Yu there, regardless of their love in "public places". "Don''t you have a home or don''t you have a room here?" Li Yunze''s voice was filled with a melancholy sour air, "regardless of other people''s feelings..." As a matter of fact, he had already carried his luggage upstairs. Li Jinxi circled Chen Yu''s arm, her beautiful eyes fanned, and looked at Li Yunze upstairs with the charm of her royal sister''s arrogance. "Where did you get angry?" Li Yunze ''cluttered'' in his heart, frowned slightly, and felt as if he had just Jin Xi and Chen Yu show everywhere. It''s not a day or two. Why are they so sour today?! He sighed secretly. Li Yunze was full of why he Ning left hand in hand with the man. He looked very close. Looking back, I looked at the curious Li Jinxi. "Please worry about me as a busy person..." Li Yunze attributed the problem to his work and continued to go upstairs. "At first glance, it is endocrine disorder!" Chen said. "Can men also have endocrine disorders?" Li Jinxi was a little confused. Chen Yu looked at Li Jinxi, "you are from a medical family. Ask me? How do I know?" "Then what are you talking about endocrine disorders?!" Li Jinxi''s mouth twitched and stared at Chen Yu. "Besides... You don''t know, those who know me, I don''t know them..." paused, and she looked upstairs again. There was no figure of Li Yunze, "but I think Yunze is my great uncle!" "..." Chen Yu twitched uncontrollably at the corners of his mouth. Li Jinxi was serious nonsense, "well, just like a woman''s aunt, there are always a few days a month that are neurotic!" "Looking at your serious nonsense," Chen Yu pulled at the corners of his mouth, "I immediately felt that my wife is so cute." "Must......" Li Jinxi proudly raised her eyebrows. "I asked the kitchen to prepare dinner. When Yunze and his father finished, it was just time for dinner." "Yes." ¡­¡­ "Mom..." seeing why Yining pick her up at the school gate one by one, his eyes lit up instantly and he left the class team and ran to why Yining. Because he was too eager, he tripped over the teeth of the road. If he didn''t react quickly, the little guy would surely fall down. "Can''t you be more careful?" He Yining has some discontent after being shocked. "It''s because I haven''t seen my mother for many days. I''m so excited!" One by one, the little face said seriously, "isn''t mom excited to see one by one?" A rhetorical question, why Yining choking is happy and sour. "Eh..." look around one by one, "where''s uncle Si?" "..." he Yining was a little blocked at the moment. One by one is saying "love" to her, which she is still moved. Why is the little girl thinking about ace?! He Yining is a little weak. He likes handsome guys so much one by one. How can he be good in the future? "In the car," he Yining said with a smile, "I was just answering the phone and I came to wait." After hearing this, he Yining hurriedly took his hand and left, "Mom, let''s go home for dinner today. I haven''t eaten the meal made by my mother for a long time." "Good!" He Yining said with a smile, "go shopping first." "Uncle Si also wants to eat at home..." flapping his long eyelashes one by one, "Uncle Si should eat in our house not only today, but also for many days in the future." "Er..." he Yining was puzzled. "Uncle Si took care of me when you were not in Los Angeles." One by one, she looked up. "Mom should thank uncle Si." "Yes!" Why would you rather not object to this reason, "but you don''t need many days in the future?" "You think, you don''t have the money as Uncle Si, so you can''t use money." One by one, he said, "you have no other skills except to be a doctor. You can''t hope uncle Si is ill? So you can only cook for uncle Si." "..." why would you rather take a swipe at the corner of your mouth? "I can''t refute your reason!" Chapter 1275 "Of course," said one by one, rubbing his moist little lips, "I was taught by the most powerful mother!" Why Ning''s mouth twitched again. Being praised so proudly by her daughter, she said... Very high heart, but also very flustered! When he Yining and one by one got on the bus, Jin shaosi was still on the phone "I don''t want to see the same thing again... Otherwise, you''ll put your resignation on my desk." Jin shaosi''s voice was low and lingran, which was completely different from when he Yining talked to him one by one. "I''ll let ruomin follow up the rest... En!" After the other party didn''t know what to say, Jin shaosi answered coldly and hung up. After he Yining met Jin shaosi again, he didn''t see him at work. Now he looked at it and was a little curious. In the past, ASI was a person who was not very warm, but he didn''t have such a visual sense of abstinence as a male god - obviously, I''ve been used to Mr. Jin these days and I''m not curious about him at all. He put his arm around his neck and looked at him directly. What happened? I have brought my daughter for four years. It''s less than ten days since she left. She "rebelled"?! "Uncle Si, just now my mother said, wait to go to the supermarket to buy vegetables, then go home to cook, and we''ll eat together..." one by one said with a crisp voice and a smile. "Oh?" Jin shaosi said softly and looked at he Yining. Seeing her look of "unable to defend", he knew that she was thinking carefully one by one. But he likes it! As long as we recognize him one by one, there will be no obstacle between him and Yining, right? Even, it is a good help. "Really!" One by one, he Yining said, "Mom, is that what you said, right?" Before she could answer, the little girl looked at Mr. Jin and said, "Mom also said that uncle Si would come to my house for dinner in the future!" "..." why should she rather help her forehead? She really wants to defend, which is clearly said one by one. However, at the thought of defending, as if he didn''t want ace to come to dinner, he finally gave up. Lu Fan looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror, and the indifferent facial lines were slightly softer. This is the woman the boss likes. Although she has the children of other men, she looks quite suitable for the boss. "Boss, go to the supermarket?" Lu fan asked. "Yes." Jin shaosi should say. "OK." Lu Fan started the car and went to the nearby supermarket. One by one sitting in the cart, Jin shaosi pushing, he Yining aside Three people strolled in the supermarket and soon attracted some attention. "That man is so handsome and stylish!" "Women also look good." "So..." someone concluded, "the perfect result of my parents gave birth to a cute little public act!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The rate of return is getting higher and higher. Why would you rather be busy picking vegetables without paying attention. Jin shaosi naturally ignored those eyes, but he was a little proud one by one. Hum, when Uncle Si becomes a father, uncle Si, my mother and I can live together. Thinking about it one by one, the legs and feet sitting in the cart kept shaking because they were too happy. Why did Ning choose some dishes? Jin shaosi pushed her to weigh them one by one, and she went to buy something else. When she came back, she was stunned to see that there were some other dishes in the cart that she didn''t choose. "You want to eat these..." he Yining looked at the main materials in the car, which were supposed to make big dishes, and looked at Mr. Jin with a trembling heart. Jin shaosi nodded, "well, I want to eat one by one." "But..." why would you rather be a little embarrassed. She wanted to say that she couldn''t make hard dishes, but think about it. Jin shaosi wanted to eat and moved out one by one. She couldn''t go back and toss around. She couldn''t be sure that she was in good condition today, so she made it. Jin shaosi looked at he Yining. After he fell into his own thoughts, he smiled secretly, "you just came back. Aren''t you tired?" "Ah?!" He Yining didn''t react. Jin shaosi''s vision became deep. In his voice, there was a spoil that he had not deliberately concealed. "I''ll do it tonight," he said "This... Is not very good?" He Yining was embarrassed. "Uncle Si''s cooking is delicious." Pick eyebrows one by one. "Have you eaten?" Why rather ask. Shake your head one by one, "no!" Then he tooted his mouth and looked at he Yining. "How do you cook when you live in a hotel?" "Then you know..." why do we make complaints about our eyes? "Anyway, uncle Si can do what his mother can''t do, so uncle Si must be very good at cooking!" One by one, he said. "Yes, you little fan sister is what she says..." why Ning looked at her Jin shaosi with a little red face and a smile all the time. She felt that this daughter must be fake! ¡­¡­ "Have you decided on the South China Sea?" Li Jiyuan pondered, "has the place been selected?" "Well chosen, the location is near the bridge in Donghai city..." Li Yunze said. "In this way, both cities are relatively convenient." "Yes." Li Jiyuan nodded. "I''ll have a traditional Chinese medicine research tomorrow and the day after tomorrow. I''ll leave for a few days. You''ll see to it that the Nanhai Huakang thing is done." Li Yunze nodded. "It''s estimated that dinner is almost ready," Li Jiyuan looked at the time and got up. "Go down and have dinner first!" "Yes." Li Yunze answered and got up. Li Jiyuan just turned his desk and suddenly stopped thinking of something. "By the way, I had dinner with President Ma Shuya that day and suddenly mentioned Yining... Why didn''t you tell me when Yining came back?" There was something wrong with Li Yunze''s face, but she just recovered her calm in an instant. "She doesn''t want to contact the people before now." "Lao he is such a daughter. He used to have a good relationship. Yining is a doctor again..." Li Jiyuan sighed. "If you can help in this regard, you can take care of it more in the future." Li Yunze didn''t speak. Li Jiyuan thought that his son would rather pester him because of what he had done before. He didn''t think much and said, "you don''t have to come forward by yourself. In short, if you need anything in the future, just help!" "OK..." Li Yunze answered. Because he mentioned he Yining again, he thought about the night and the airport, and he added a pile of gas to his stomach. Li Yunze and Li Jiyuan left the study and went downstairs Li Yunze''s footsteps came down the last step, and his mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. He took it out, saw it was a strange number, slightly invisible, gently twisted the center of his eyebrows and then picked it up, "who is it?" Qu Weiwei stood under a sculpture in Los Angeles square, listening to the familiar voice and gently calling, "Yunze..." Chapter 1276 Li Yunze listened to the sound and suddenly stopped. Qu Weiwei didn''t speak again, but the smile from the corners of her mouth gradually turned and spread to her face, waiting for Li Yunze''s response. "Vivi?" After a while, Li Yunze asked with some uncertainty. "Yes!" Qu Weiwei smiled, "after all these years, I didn''t expect you to hear my voice..." Li Yunze was silent, and his mood was complex and messy. He didn''t have time to sort it out. "Yunze," Qu Weiwei asked with a smile, "are you free?" Li Yunze looked at several people waiting for him to take his seat at the table. When he looked back, he asked, "where are you?" "The old place." Qu Weiwei deliberately said, "if I''m free, I''ll wait for you here." "OK." Li Yunze hung up the phone after answering the voice and told Li Jiyuan that he had something to do and drove away. The night in Los Angeles is just right. At the beginning of the lantern, the bright glass reflects the whole ink night. When passing through a viaduct, there is some congestion on the road Li Yunze followed the traffic flow and slowly moved the car. At the same time, in his mind, some fragments of memory seemed to have been dusty for a long time. He suddenly opened the lock and burst the brake. "Yunze, how innocent am I?" Qu Weiwei asked painfully, "just because I am the daughter of what servant, so I let her, but in the end?" "I don''t want to see why Ning... Yunze, please!" "Li Yunze, you never know how I feel when I was young... What do you want me to do now?" "Maybe leaving here is the best. I don''t want to be hurt by he Yining''s love for you... Even if you are innocent." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Fragments echoed in my head little by little, but clearly. Li Yunze was a little agitated. He opened the window, put one arm on it, gently helped his forehead and looked at the front The night wind blew in, and people seemed to wake up a little, and it seemed to blow more and more disorderly. Li Yunze looked at the traffic flow that was still moving like an ant, and became more agitated. He casually turned on the radio station, which was playing music programs. "On such a night, do you walk in a hurry on your way home, or do you get together in three or five days?" In the radio station, the hostess''s slightly depressed voice came from the radio station, which was clearly pleasant to hear but depressed. "Have you ever thought of someone at a certain intersection and wanted to go back to the past?" At this time, there is background music The host continued to say in that tone: "go back to the past, want to face the original things clearly, and want to solve things more satisfactorily... Or, because you see your heart now, want to go back to the past and make up for the lost time?" The host deliberately paused and said slowly: "the next song" back to the past "is for you who are listening to the program... Even if time can''t go back, time gives us memory. No matter good or bad, at this moment, let''s follow this song and taste it slowly..." The background music is increased, and a song "back to the past" makes Li Yunze fall into the memory of the past The sound of the roller of the emergency bed always makes people feel dignified when they come to the hospital. It''s like death. When Li Yunze received the call and rushed to the hospital, Qu Weiwei was in the operating room covered with blood. If he wasn''t a doctor, he would be scared to death by what he looked like at that time. "What happened?" Li Yunze asked the people who came with Qu Weiwei. A girl said with resentment in her eyes: "he Yining had a dispute with Weiwei, and I don''t know exactly what. But later, Weiwei had an exam to go, so she had to put it down and say it back... However, he Yining was crazy and suddenly ran to stop Weiwei''s car. Weiwei was afraid of hitting her. After she hit the direction, she hit a tree..." As soon as the girl finished speaking, Li Yunze''s face suddenly changed. He Yining may be able to guess why he quarreled with Qu Weiwei. During that time, for some reasons, he was very close to Qu Weiwei. Why did Ning come to question him today He scolded him by saying "what identity do you use to control me? Why Yining, don''t forget, I don''t have any light relationship with you. Even if I am with Qu Weiwei, it seems that you have no right to control... Don''t look like I have lost you". Perhaps, if he hadn''t been to he Yining that day, she wouldn''t have questioned Qu Weiwei. Without Qu Weiwei''s car accident, there might not be a lot of things next Li Yunze made a sound. Remember this thing. Sometimes in a certain period of time, all you remember will be good, and sometimes you will think of a lot of things you don''t want to think of. Li Yunze closed his eyes and gradually closed his mind after a song fell. He turned off the radio directly, and his mood had never been more complicated. If he didn''t tangle that night in Nanhai City, maybe he wasn''t so upset at this moment In fact, he Ning can start with a lot of feelings, but he doesn''t really want to start with them. Between him and he Yining, whether it''s because of Qu Weiwei or the man around her... It''s never just a matter of love. When Li Yunze arrived at Los Angeles square, it was an hour and a half after Qu Weiwei called. Li Yunze found a parking space and stopped. After getting off the car, he first looked around the landmark of Los Angeles, and then walked to the place of the central sculpture From a distance, Li Yunze saw Qu Weiwei. Qu Weiwei was wearing a treasure Pink Chiffon jacket with a waist closed, and a white skirt above her knee was standing under the sculpture. Her curly hair was scattered at will, and her temperament was obvious at will. Li Yunze is sometimes surprised that the daughter of a servant has developed the temperament of a young lady. On the contrary, he Yining, the daughter of a rich family, looks very casual all day. Inexplicably, at this moment, Li Yunze suddenly remembered that time at the Los Angeles academic research association, why he would rather dress casually in the middle of a pile of formal clothes. It looked very comfortable. Li Yunze paused and then stepped forward Just as she was approaching, Qu Weiwei seemed to feel it. She turned and looked over. At the moment she saw Li Yunze, she smiled slowly. Before Li Yunze could react, Qu Weiwei hugged him. Li Yunze frowned slightly, but did not open her. "Yunze," Qu Weiwei gently rubbed her chin on Li Yunze''s shoulder, and there was a little moist breath in the fundus of her eyes, "I miss you so much!" Chapter 1277 Li Yunze didn''t move. She let Qu Weiwei loose after holding her. Then she looked at her and asked, "when did you come back?" "I''ve been back for a few days, but I only came back to Los Angeles today." Qu Weiwei said with a smile. Li Yunze looked at Qu Weiwei by the light of the square. Time was on her and polished her more and more beautiful. "Have you eaten yet?" Qu Weiwei asked, "I haven''t eaten yet, so you have to answer that you haven''t eaten." Li Yunze lowered his eyes and smiled, "just about to eat, your phone came." "That''s just..." Qu Weiwei naturally circled Li Yunze''s arm. "Accompany me to dinner as a breeze for me." "OK." Li Yunze answered. His voice was neither hot nor cold. There was neither too much excitement nor too much alienation. Qu Weiwei raised her eyebrows and motioned. The two went to a western restaurant opposite Los Angeles square. "I can''t believe it''s been five or six years. It''s still open here..." Qu Weiwei looked around, "but it seems to be redecorated." "Yes." Li Yunze answered, gently shaking the red wine glass with his fingers, "it''s quite a coincidence. I''ve been on business before and didn''t come back until this afternoon." "Oh?" Qu Weiwei smiled in surprise, "it seems that I still have fate with you." Li Yunze smiled with an unfathomable smile. Qu Weiwei laughed, "what are you nervous about?" Paused, "why, I have a girlfriend now. I''m afraid I''ll come back and pester you?" "No..." "No?" Qu Weiwei''s enchanting arm is propped on the table, holding her chin in her hand, and her vision is somewhat blurred and charming under the light. "Is there no girlfriend, or is she not afraid of me pestering you?" Li Yunze looked into Qu Weiwei''s eyes and said, "what do you think?" "En..." Qu Weiwei looked out of the window and pondered. When she looked at Li Yunze again, she smiled and said, "I hope there are neither." Li Yunze didn''t speak. "After all, we haven''t broken up yet... Haven''t we?" Qu Weiwei smiled and blinked her eyes, making it impossible to see whether she was joking or serious. Li Yunze did not think deeply. Although Qu Weiwei left at the beginning, it was also because of why she was forced to leave If you have to say, it''s true that Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei haven''t officially broken up. Even if they were together, it was very dramatic. Li Yunze lowered his eyes and raised them. Without answering the question, "are you going to leave this time?" Qu Weiwei shook her head. "The focus of work has moved to China, and the studio will also be in Los Angeles." "Oh?" Li Yunze whispered softly. "Yunze, you won''t ask me what I do?" Qu Weiwei asked jokingly. When seeing that Li Yunze didn''t speak, Qu Weiwei laughed at herself, "I''ve been away for so many years, but you haven''t paid attention to me?!" Li Yunze twists the glass with his fingers and still doesn''t speak. "Hey..." Qu Weiwei drooped her shoulders. "Forget it, I don''t care about you. It seems that you haven''t taken the initiative to care about others." The corner of Li Yunze''s mouth raised an arc like nothing, "the studio opened and I went there." "Necessary." Qu Weiwei raised her eyebrows. "Even if our relationship is not exposed, your eldest young master of the Li family will be present, but give me free publicity!" Just then, the meal was put up. The two talked while talking, but from beginning to end, most of them were Qu Weiwei, and Li Yunze should say a few words occasionally. "Where do you live? I''ll take you back." Li Yunze asked. "La grand hotel." Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze and said, "are you free tomorrow?" "Well?" "If you want to buy a house, you can''t stay in a hotel all the time..." Qu Weiwei shrugged. "I haven''t come back to Los Angeles for many years, and I''m not familiar with it." She glanced at Li Yunze, "if you want to buy a house under the emperor, you should be the most suitable." Li Yunze was silent. "There should be tomorrow afternoon." "OK, I''ll see you in the hospital tomorrow afternoon." "Yes." Li Yunze answered. After sending Qu Weiwei back to the hotel, Li Yunze didn''t plan to get off. "Don''t you go up and sit down?" Qu Weiwei asked. "The hospital has something to do tomorrow morning. You have just arrived. Have a rest earlier!" Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze''s solemn appearance and smiled, "why, I''m afraid I''ll eat you if you go up?" Li Yunze frowned slightly and invisibly. "How can Weize become so abstinent for a few years?" Weize said "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth. Seeing him like this, Qu Weiwei smiled and said, "don''t tease you. I''ll go up first and find you tomorrow afternoon." Then she opened the door and got off. After waving with Li Yunze, she walked to the hotel with proud and capable steps Li Yunze glanced at her back and started the car to leave. Just as Li Yunze''s car crossed the flower bed at the door, Qu Weiwei stopped and turned around. Looking at the tail of Li Yunze''s disappeared car, she just smiled casually and gradually converged After she has been away for so many years, Yunze doesn''t know what she does? He seems to be gentle and evil, but he is actually a cold hearted person in his bones But after all, she was his girlfriend. Didn''t he take her to heart at all? So, why did he remember the thing of he Yining so clearly? Just because he Yining was entangled with him from small to large, did it just become a natural reaction? Qu Weiwei gradually narrowed her eyes, and there was a faint light of dissatisfaction in her eyes ¡­¡­ The next day, he Yining reported the seminar to Ma Guangming after returning to the hospital in the morning. "Well, the materials of the seminar will be handed over to the reference room for filing!" Ma Guangming smiled at he Yining. "Doctor he, you''ve just come back. Do you want to take a day off to fix it?" "..." he Yining looked at Ma Guangming''s smile and looked at him with puzzled eyes. When was the Dean so talkative?! "No," he Yining shook his head. "I don''t have to shift. I won''t take over the operation when I come back today. I don''t have to rest." "Well..." Ma Guangming nodded, "OK, then go to work!" He Yining nodded and turned away. At the moment of closing the office door, she subconsciously looked at Ma Guangming. She always felt that the Dean looked at her strangely today. "Alas, there is a man who is in the hospital. It''s really quite a few foreign affairs!" Ma Guangming sighed happily at the moment when the office door closed, "I can''t imagine why he Yining can let he Lao take special care of me!" Why should I rather go back to the Department while thinking about Ma Guangming''s attitude. Before entering the office, she heard someone shouting "Yining". She subconsciously looked up and saw Qu Weiwei coming towards he Chapter 1278 He Yining watched Qu Weiwei walk towards her step by step. The look on her face that had just been confused by Ma Guangming''s words gradually turned into indifference. I haven''t seen Qu Weiwei for several years. Qu Weiwei is still the same in he Yining''s eyes. The temperament and aura of the whole body have suppressed her as a genuine daughter without omission Oh, no! She''s not a daughter now. She''s just a single mother working for a living. "Yining." Qu Weiwei stopped in front of he Yining, "long time no see." Why rather cold "Oh" sound, "I hope I''ll never see you again." Without mercy, there is a sense of distance. If she had been naive before, she would not have fallen twice on the same person. "Why, are you so upset when you haven''t seen your friend for so long?" Qu Weiwei said as if she were not angry. He Yining sneered, "friend?" She couldn''t stand it. She rolled her eyes. "Qu Weiwei, say the word ''friend'' from your mouth. You''re not afraid to insult this word!" "It seems that you''re still angry that I''m with Yunze..." Qu Weiwei raised her eyebrows and said with a deep meaning that people can''t understand. "Yining, you still can''t let go after so many years?" He Yining clenched his teeth secretly and wanted to slap Qu Weiwei directly. Shit, I can''t let go. It has nothing to do with your wool! Why Ning clenched her hand, looked at Qu Weiwei coldly and said, "I''m at work, so it''s not suitable for private topics..." after a pause, she scratched a sneer at the bottom of her eyes, "of course, if you''re here to see a doctor, I don''t mind checking you!" With the words of ridicule and curse, why Ning''s mood didn''t converge at all. Sure enough, Qu Weiwei''s face suddenly changed. Why Ning gently fanned his eyes and looked innocent, "if you are ill, you can see a doctor or take medicine... People, sometimes you are most afraid that you know you are ill and forget to take medicine when you go out. Weiwei, do you think so?!" Qu Weiwei''s face was even more ugly. He Yining takes back his sight indifferently and wants to turn around "Yining, let''s have dinner after work?" Qu Weiwei restrained her anger. "After all, who has taken care of you for so many years? Now you are the only one left in who. I should take care of you." Why Ning turned to Qu Weiwei with a sneer in her mouth, "first of all, I don''t think I need to be taken care of by others. Secondly... You know what family has taken care of you for so many years?" She hummed softly, "Qu Weiwei, people are doing it and the sky is watching. No one can be proud all his life." "Indeed..." Qu Weiwei looked up and down at the circle, he Yining, "aren''t you a good example?!" "Dr. he!" Not waiting for why to speak, suddenly, a nurse rushed over. "Dr. he, the Department of Obstetrics and Gynecology asked you to go over and say that there was a patient just now, which is similar to the case you told director Chu last time. Let you go over and have a consultation." "Good!" Why should Ning answer the voice? Without looking at Qu Weiwei, she left with the nurse. Qu Weiwei turned around and looked at the back of why Ning left. Her eyes narrowed slightly, and there was doubt in the bottom of her eyes When she left, why was Ning going to find a local internship? Unexpectedly, she didn''t see her for a few years. She did a good job! Thinking of this, Qu Weiwei flashed a sneer at the corner of her mouth, full of disdain. He Yining, for a Li Yunze, you live without principle How Qu Weiwei thinks, he Yining doesn''t care. Even if people all over the world think that she became a doctor for Li Yunze, he Yining doesn''t matter. Some things, the more explained, the more people feel pretentious He Yining and Chu Qin, the attending doctor of Obstetrics and Gynecology, examined the patient together before returning to the office to study the next treatment plan. "I also looked at the foreign case you mentioned before. At present, there is really no better treatment plan..." Chu Qin said thoughtfully. "You have a deep research in this field. I''ll talk to the dean and director Zhang of your department later. You can go directly to the obstetrics and gynecology department these days?" He Yining nodded, "yes." Anyway, she will be transferred in the future. Now come and follow up the case she studied recently. It''s not impossible. Chu Qin looked at the time. It was past noon. "Let''s go and have dinner together. Then I''ll discuss some points with you first." "Well, good." He Yining nodded, got up and walked out of the hospital with Chu Qin. ¡­¡­ Qu Weiwei stood at the door of Huakang hospital and watched her leave Huakang hospital, which had not changed much for several years. A deep smile gradually overflowed from the corners of her mouth. Taking back her sight, Qu Weiwei went directly to Li Yunze''s office area with arrogant steps. She came to Huakang to find Li Yunze before, so she is still very familiar with his place It''s just that she went to the office and threw herself into the air. "Hello," Qu Weiwei asked when she saw the passing nurse, "isn''t Li Shao there?" The nurse subconsciously looked at the direction of the office, "Oh, Li Shao... Li Shao should be in neurosurgery at the moment." "OK, thank you." Qu Weiwei nodded and went to neurosurgery. With a "Ding", the elevator arrived at neurosurgery. Qu Weiwei stepped out when the elevator door opened. As soon as she turned around, she saw yanmiao over there in the nurse station. She didn''t know what to tell the nurse. Qu Weiwei frowned slightly. Unexpectedly, yanmiao finally stayed in Huakang. After all, not many interns in Huakang can stay in the hospital. "The patient in bed 21 has to go to take his temperature every hour. If there''s anything wrong, come to me without delay." After yanmiao confesses, he puts down the medical record and is about to be busy, but Yu Guang sweeps a figure. She subconsciously paused and looked at the past Qu Weiwei?! Yanmiao looked at the busy nurse in the nurse station and then walked forward, "I thought you wouldn''t go back to Los Angeles in your life!" "How?" Qu Weiwei pretended not to hear the irony in yanmiao''s words, "I also thought you couldn''t stay in Huakang after your internship. Don''t you also stay!" "Yes, there are always so many unexpected things in the world..." yanmiao Leng hum, "it''s like Yining''s heart and lungs to you. Who knows you''re a white eyed wolf kept around." Qu Weiwei sneered. "Some things have two sides," paused, and she smiled proudly. "Besides, I can be with Yunze thanks to Yining and you and Fang Zihan''s assists... Isn''t it?!" When it comes to toothache, I bite my teeth. "That only means..." Yan Miao squeezed out from his teeth word by word, "you are a scheming bitch!" Chapter 1279 Qu Weiwei just wanted to say something. She looked through yanmiao and saw Li Yunze and another old doctor come out of the ward She quietly astringed her eyes and said, "I love Yunze, because Yining, I endured it from childhood... Even if I was with Yunze in the end, it was put forward by Yunze. Why do you blame me?" Yanmiao said sarcastically, "why did Li Yunze propose to be with you, Qu Weiwei, you know better than anyone else in your heart!" Qu Weiwei gradually pricked the corners of her mouth, with a trace of endurance on her face. Yan Miao said coldly, "don''t pretend to be so pathetic. Li Yunze, the man, you like you to ask for it. If he wants to like you, the scheming bitch, he can only say that he is blind... After all these years, you really should rather be rare?" Qu Weiwei has a look flowing from the bottom of her eyes. She was originally acting, but she became curious because of yanmiao''s words. "Yining is surrounded by men better than Li Yunze. Do you really think anyone will hang from a tree?!" Yanmiao, in line with Qi Qu Weiwei, naturally has no worries when talking. But when I felt something wrong with the atmosphere around me, as if there was depression everywhere, I suddenly turned back. Li Yunze and the deputy director of the Department were standing behind him. Li Yunze''s face was very bad, and the deputy director was a little embarrassed. "Yunze..." Qu Weiwei pulled the corners of her mouth, looked at yanmiao and looked at Li Yunze, "I came to see you to accompany me to see the house." Li Yunze looked at yanmiao with a gloomy vision and said in a cool voice: "working time is for you to solve personal problems?" "Li Shao," Yan Miao had scolded Qu Weiwei hundreds of times at this moment. She looked at Li Yunze with gnashing teeth and a cold smile, "although it shouldn''t be during working hours, some people want to provoke me. I''m not a wood and have no mood." Yanmiao sarcastically pulled down the corner of his mouth, "however, if you are not careful, you will satirize Li Shao''s'' girlfriend ''. It''s really wrong to be public and private!" Yanmiao deliberately accentuated the word "girlfriend" and saw Li Yunze frown slightly. "Without delay, young Li accompanied his girlfriend to see the house and lived a beautiful cohabitation life from then on." Yanmiao''s words were thorny. He smiled viciously at the bottom of his eyes and said, "it''s fate to think about it. Everyone has started living together." Seeing that Li Yunze''s face changed, yanmiao was satisfied to put down the sentence "I''m busy" and turned and left The deputy director of the department took a smoke from the corner of his mouth. He knew that yanmiao would occasionally choke with Li Yunze, but he was not so brazen. He stood beside Li Shao, and the cold air was freezing to death. "I will follow up with the patient..." the deputy director of the Department smiled awkwardly at the corner of his mouth, "Li Shao, let''s get busy first!" Then he nodded slightly and hurried away from the battlefield. Li Yunze didn''t move, but his face was a little dark. He didn''t hear what yanmiao and Qu Weiwei said before, but he heard yanmiao''s last sentence clearly. He Yining won''t stick to him. It''s the first message, the second... Why would he rather live with that man! Li Yunze found that at the thought of why he would rather live with that man, his whole heart was blocked badly. "Yunze..." Qu Weiwei smiled at the corner of her mouth, "don''t care too much about yanmiao''s words. Anyway, I''m used to it." As she spoke, she smiled at herself with a look of helplessness. Li Yunze looked at Qu Weiwei, but his mind was full of the shadow of why Ning was with the man. The more he thought, the more confused he became. "Are you finished?" Seeing Li Yunze staring at her, Qu Weiwei couldn''t help smiling proudly. Li Yunze slightly restrained his mind, "I''ll change my clothes and show you the house." Then she motioned Qu Weiwei downstairs, "is there anything you want to buy?" "I saw it last night," said Qu Weiwei with a smile. "I like one, but I heard that it''s not easy to buy a house there." "Where?" Li Yunze asked. Whether it is good or not, in order to prepare for a rainy day, the real estate department of the emperor will reserve several sets of real estate in case of need. So, this is not a problem. "Yudu apartment!" Qu Weiwei said, "in the Second Ring Road, it is very convenient first... Followed by high-end apartments. I like the environment and equipment." Li Yunze could not help frowning slightly when he heard that it was Yudu apartment. When he didn''t go back to the villa, he basically lived in the house there for the past two years. "It''s not cheap there..." Qu Weiwei smiled. "I''ve done well abroad for several years," she looked at Li Yunze. "If I don''t have the ability, I won''t put my goal there." Li Yunze originally wanted to say something. Finally, the corners of his mouth moved back and forth, but he answered, "well." Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze, who was suddenly silent, and felt a little uncomfortable. She knew that Li Yunze''s house was in Yudu apartment, but she offered to buy it there, but he didn''t seem to plan to tell her. ¡­¡­ When yanmiao returned to the office, he saw that no one else called he Yining directly. "Qu Weiwei is back!" Yan Miao said gnashing his teeth. He Yining was silent. "I''ve seen you this morning." "Shit!" Yan Miao burst into a rude remark, "paralyzed, this woman left that year and didn''t want to come back all her life... When she came back, she came to you and Li Yunze. What does she mean?" He Yining was silent because there were other doctors in the office. "Two bitches!" Yanmiao gritted his teeth more and more. Because he was angry, he said directly, "he Yining, you''d better give up Li Yunze. I think major Jin is very good... It''s good for you and one by one. It''s better for you to work with him." "I''m relatives with ACE," he Yining whispered. "Can you stop messing around like one by one?" "No matter what kind of relatives he doesn''t have, he''ll get married later. In a few years, doesn''t love become family affection under daily necessities?" Yan Miao snorted, "shit, as soon as I see Qu Weiwei''s cunning bitch, I don''t care why Li Yunze was with her at the beginning. It''s a black thing all my life!" Why should Ning hang his eyes and say in a lower voice: "what''s the matter with him? I still have children with him!" "...." Yan Miao listened and directly helped his forehead, "look at your promise." He paused, "don''t be rude to me if you have the ability. If you have the ability, go and tell him that you have his child..." He Yining was silent. "I''ll tell you why... I think it''s better for you to say it!" Yan Miao looked like a clapper. "I''m sure it will slap Qu Weiwei''s face!" Chapter 1280 Why should Ning look at other doctors in the same office who are busy and chatting? Seeing that no one is looking, he whispered, "I don''t want to use one by one as a chip. Moreover, one by one is my daughter, not a chess piece!" Of course yanmiao knows. In fact, she has just had a mouth addiction. She has just been angry with Qu Weiwei. "Qu Weiwei''s bitch is back now. I don''t know what she will look like as a demon in the future!" Yan Miao heaved a deep sigh, some drooped their shoulders and said, "you''re not as cheap as her!" "..." why would you rather cry without tears, "are you such a Comforter?" "Originally!" Yan Miao turned his eyes. "Bitch has bitch grinding. You''re not a bitch. How can you smooth Qu Weiwei?" He Yining was silent. "I don''t know how long your eyes used to be..." yanmiao said angrily. "It''s insulting to regard such a white eyed wolf as a best friend!" "You have scolded me for this for several years..." why did Ning mutter. Yan Miao sighed heavily, "stay away from that scheming bitch in the future. You can''t play with her again, and don''t disdain those messy means." Paused, "Why are you so stupid?" He Yining sighed again, looked at director Zhang who entered the office, and hurriedly said, "I have something here. I''ll talk later." "Dr. he," said director Zhang, "director Chu of the Department of Obstetrics and Gynecology told me that you should go there first and see what happens later!" He Yining felt the breath of director Zhang, and was secretly shocked. While nodding in response, he thought about whether to turn back and transfer directly. On the surgical side, she spent most of her time in obstetrics and gynecology. No wonder the director looked dissatisfied ¡­¡­ Xiao Jing leaned against the door with his arms around his chest. After glancing at Qu Weiwei who was looking at the house, he looked at Li Yunze, "Li Shao, when do you like to watch the house with women?" Li Yunze glanced sideways at Xiao Jing, "you emperor president special help, when customers look at the house, you want to come in person?" "There''s no way..." Xiao Jing shrugged. "I''m a brick of the people. Where do I need to move it!" After a pause, he continued, "when Chen Shao arranged for Mrs. Shao to go to the Runze garden, I also went there myself. You Li Shao arranged for a woman, of course I''ll come in person." Xiao Jing was joking, but Li Yunze''s face sank in an instant. "My situation is different from that of Beichen." Let''s not say that Jian Mo was Beichen''s wife at the beginning. It''s Beichen''s Thoughts on Jian mo. even if he doesn''t know, he is subconsciously in love As for him Li Yunze looked at Qu Weiwei and sighed secretly. He and Qu Weiwei have no love At least, he didn''t! Xiao Jing shrugged and saw Qu Weiwei go to the bedroom. Then he asked, "I listen to Chen Shao. I want to leave you a house near the hospital?" "Yes." Xiao Jing laughed, and his voice was always suppressed within the range that two people could hear. "Because she likes the house here, don''t you plan to live here?" Li Yunze was speechless. "If you don''t speak, I won''t treat you as a mute!" Xiao Jing laughed and showed no mercy at all. Qu Weiwei was very satisfied with the house type and set it directly. No matter what the relationship between Qu Weiwei and Li Yunze is, since Li Yunze personally brought her to see the house, it''s natural that she should get a discount However, even if the discount is offered, it still costs millions. Li Yunze watched Qu Weiwei pay. It was obvious that there was no pressure for her to pay these millions. She didn''t make any loans and paid them all. In those days, the daughter of he''s servant was no longer comparable. "Dinner later?" Qu Weiwei looked at Xiao Jing from Li Yunze. "Does Beichen have time?" Xiao Jing smiled. "Chen has little time. How can I know with a special help?" He shrugged and looked at Li Yunze. "Li Shao, if there''s nothing else, I''ll leave first." "Yes." Li Yunze nodded and read some information from Xiao Jing''s eyes. Xiao Jing was sent to him by boss long when Beichen was decadent in Britain. Although Xiao Jing had followed Beichen when he was with Qu Weiwei, he didn''t know her. Xiao Jing and Qu Weiwei nodded to leave and went straight back to the emperor group. "Chen Shao." Gu Beichen was reading the document and asked without raising his head, "have you ordered it?" "All of them," Xiao Jing sat down across from him. "In other words, what''s sacred about Qu Weiwei? Li Shao has always been among thousands of flowers and leaves... He would accompany a woman to see the house." Gu Beichen looked up and leaned slowly against the seat. "I''m curious. Why are you gossiping more and more?" "Ha ha..." Xiao Jing laughed twice and then said solemnly, "this is not young Jie. Sometimes there are many problems. Do I have to prepare a topic?!" "Don''t talk about my son." Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face showed dissatisfaction. "However, that Qu Weiwei looks very good-looking, but it''s a little pretended." Xiao Jing took the cigarette on Gu Beichen''s desk, gave Gu Beichen a cigarette and lit it himself. "It''s reasonable to say that it''s not like the type Li Shao likes!" "What type should Yunze like?" Gu Beichen asked funny. "At least it should not be so pretended. I feel I can''t get into our circle." When Xiao Jing said this, he suddenly thought of something, "that woman called you very close. You were all familiar with it before?" "When I was young, I occasionally played together..." Gu Beichen said with a faint alienation. "I haven''t seen it since I was taken away by my second uncle." Gu Beichen said, taking a breath of smoke. When he spit out the smoke, his sight was slightly deep. Qu Weiwei had a good character in the past. Although she didn''t have much contact, she worked hard because she was the daughter of a servant But people who grow up in that environment will suppress a lot of emotions if they don''t make simple efforts. When the he family collapsed, the servant''s daughter paid for the Yudu apartment in full, and took Yunze to see the house together... It''s thought-provoking. However, love is something Gu Beichen has seen more thoroughly since he experienced Jian mo. Whether two people fit or not has nothing to do with character, but with love. If you love, even if you don''t have the right character, you can see a flower Don''t love, even the best character, can''t come together after all. Just like he Yining, he thought she was very interesting at that time, but Yunze was very upset. Thinking of why Yining, Gu Beichen suddenly remembered that Jane Mo said yesterday that she wanted to call why Yining and come to dinner one by one at the weekend. One by one Unexpectedly, after so many years, Yunze is still single, but Yining has children. Chapter 1281 He Yining found that Fang Zihan, a gossip reporter, did a good job. For example "Yining, do you know who I photographed today?" Fang Zihan said gnashing his teeth. Why rather help the forehead, "it must be Qu Weiwei!" "..." Fang Zihan was stunned at first, "eh, you know she''s back?!" "I know, Yan Yan knows, we''ve all met." Why rather knead some painful eyebrows. "Didn''t this woman say when she left that Los Angeles was the last place she wanted to stay in her life?" Fang Zihan sneered, "why, it''s only been a few years and come back again?!" Why did he make complaints about "ha ha"? As a close friend, Qu Weiwei told her everything from her childhood to her senior general. Even, she has never regarded her as the daughter of a servant, so that her father loves her and loves her. Qu Weiwei has the same experience as a daughter. What else can she say except that she is stupid?! "No, I''m not talking about this..." Fang Zihan gritted his teeth more and more. "I photographed her with Li Yunze and went to the high-end apartment under the emperor. I don''t know what to do... As soon as I came back, they got involved?!" Why Ning''s heart is so sour that it is lost. That kind of acid is about to sour out of bitter water. Even some frustrated noses are sour at the same time, and their eyes are red. What is dog blood? Is that your "best friend" and the man you love with your life come together, and then you regret that your intestines are green, but you don''t have eggs Feeling why Yining''s sadness, Fang Zihan felt a little guilty, but he insisted: "you''d better polish your eyes this time. There is no fragrant grass in the world. Why fall in love with a silly grass?" "..." he Yining was described by Fang Zihan and immediately made a ''poop poop'', and his sadness became a helpless smile. "By the way, I went to pick her up one by one from school on Friday. Last time I promised to take her one by one on the ferris wheel and the merry go round." Fang Zihan said, "just in time, I''ll leave you some time to fall in love with other men." "What do you mean to fall in love with another man?" Why would you rather turn your eyes. "Now you go to work during the day and accompany one by one at night. How can you have time to see those men outside? There is only one Li Yunze all day..." Fang Zihan said, "when Yan Yan and I are free, I will bring one for you. You will naturally find that many men are actually better than Li Yunze." "It''s like you and Yanyan have boyfriends. They''re not all single dogs." Why do we make complaints about Tucao? "..." Fang Zihan pulled at the corner of his mouth, "he Yining, I tell you, if you stimulate me again, I''ll marry Yan Yan!" Why rather smiled, "your mother will kill you!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Fang Zihan asked Heaven without a word. Why should her kindness be damaged by her friends? She must have made a false friend! After chatting with Fang Zihan again, he Yining hung up the phone. Just hung up for a few minutes, the phone rang again. Why should I rather see that it was Jane Mo''s fight and pick it up, "Mo Mo..." "Yining, are you all right this weekend?" He Yining thought, "it''s all right!" "Then you bring one by one to have a barbecue. Xiao Jie hasn''t seen one by one for a long time. He yells all day!" Jane Mo said, and saw Jane Jie''s small eyes staring at her angrily. Jane Mo looked proud and had a sense of vision of "you bite me if you have the ability". He Yining is actually a little hesitant. Let Gu Beichen see one by one. He estimates that he can see that one by one is Li Yunze''s daughter. Look back "OK." Why should I rather answer the voice. Jane Mo has shouted for the second time. Although she did have something last time, it''s bad to refuse this time. Besides, everyone is in Los Angeles. It''s impossible not to be found all the time. We can only take one step at a time. Friday. One by one, there is Fang Zihan. Why would you rather not be in a hurry after work? Think about eating out later, and then go shopping for a while. It''s about to change the season. She has to buy some clothes and shoes for one by one. Last year''s clothes and shoes can''t be worn this year. "Yining..." Jin shaosi looked at he Yining who had been hanging his head, and his fingers were still pulling. He didn''t know what he was totaling. He smiled, and the bottom of his eyes was full of love. He Yining stopped his steps and looked up. When he saw Jin shaosi, he was stunned, "ah Si, how did you come here?" "I''m finished. I''m fine in the evening. I''ll pick you up when I''m passing by. I''ll pick you up one by one by the way..." Jin shaosi said. "One by one, the quilt Han picked it up today. Don''t pick it up." "Oh?" Jin shaosi smiled lightly, but there was a faint smile on the corners of his mouth. He Yining looked at him with a deeper and deeper vision and said, "in this case, let''s go and eat." One by one, Jin shaosi knew that he would be taken away tonight, or that this matter was told to him one by one! Thinking of calling Yining one by one last night while he was taking a bath, Jin shaosi had a smile in his eyes He Yining didn''t find the light from the bottom of Jin shaosi''s eyes. He just left the corner of his mouth and nodded. "Then help yourself to some food. Later, I''m going to buy some seasonal clothes for one by one." He Yining said and got on the bus. "OK." Jin shaosi opened the door and waited until he Yining got on the bus before he got on the other side. After he Yining got on the bus, he still wanted to buy several coats one by one. What kind of coats do you need When the car stopped at a western restaurant, she frowned slightly, "didn''t she say to eat casually?" "Well, it''s in the business district," said Jin shaosi with a smile. "Next to it is Feilong department store, which is very convenient." He Yining looks at Jin shaosi. He is dressed in a well tailored handmade suit. He has been in the Jin family environment for ten years. His "casual" is estimated to be in a convenient area?! He Yining expressed understanding. Because he wanted to go shopping later, Jin shaosi didn''t order red wine, so he ordered some faster meals than western food. "Would you like a cake?" Asked Jin shaosi. "Don''t..." he Yining refused, "you''ll get fat at night." Jin shaosi smiled, "it''s all right..." he continued to look at the meal card, as if he had accidentally joked, "when you''re thin, I like your thin appearance, when you''re fat... I like your fat appearance." "Ace, men are sometimes duplicative!" He Yining listened and turned his eyes. Jin shaosi raised his eyes and smiled at he Yining. His sight gradually deepened He likes Yining to be so unpretentious, especially in front of him. He has no burden to say anything. "You..." Jin shaosi just wanted to speak when he saw Li Yunze walking into the restaurant with a woman. When he saw the woman clearly, he could not help frowning slightly. "What happened to me?" Why Ning asked, and subconsciously wanted to see it with the eyes of Jin shaosi Chapter 1282 "I want to ask," Jin shaosi hurriedly stopped why he Ning wanted to turn back, "what have you been thinking about since you just came out of the hospital?" He Yining really didn''t look back, but said with a smile: "what kind of clothes do you want to buy one by one... I''m afraid it''s too late to look back." Jin shaosi looked at he Yining''s mother''s love, and his smile couldn''t help expanding Once, he jiaqianjin, who didn''t know the heaven and earth, is now a mother who needs to prepare in advance because of her daughter. "Once in the East China Sea, the weather suddenly changed. I forgot to prepare the seasonal clothes one by one, and she caught a cold..." he Yining sighed. "Since then, I didn''t dare to come to buy, so I had to prepare in advance." "Yining..." Jin shaosi called with a touch of heartache in the bottom of his eyes. "Well?" Jin shaosi looked at he Yining with deep eyes, "you must have had a hard time these years!" "Not bad!" He Yining smiled and didn''t see Jin shaosi''s emotional reaction to her at the moment. "Although sometimes he would be in a hurry, he chose a good major at the beginning and was lucky after graduation, so it''s not much or easy." As Jin shaosi looked at he Yining, his sight became deeper and deeper, as if he wanted to turn into a pool of tenderness and want to tightly surround her. She has been like this since childhood. Even if she has any hard work, she will smile and say "OK". She never seems to know that she should be vulnerable when it is difficult Jin shaosi looked at he Yining so affectionately, and he Yining smiled and told him about the past one by one. When mom talks about her children, it seems that there are always endless topics Even the hard work of the past is sweet and interesting to recall for he Yining now. Li Yunze looked at Jin shaosi and he Yining from a distance. From the beginning, Li Yunze looked at he Yining and didn''t move. The waiter felt that the people behind him didn''t follow up, stopped and looked back, "Li Shao?" Li Yunze still didn''t move. Looking at he Yining''s excited smile, he seemed to have forgotten something and lost something. His heart was empty. Qu Weiwei looked down Li Yunze''s line of sight, and her line of sight fell on Jin shaosi. She couldn''t help but feel a touch of surprise at the bottom of her eyes, "eh, ace Paused, "is it Yining with ace?" Li Yunze glanced at Qu Weiwei. "Do you know her?" "You say ace?" Qu Weiwei wondered, then smiled and said, "of course, I know him. He was at what house at the beginning, but he left ten years ago." Li Yunze frowned slightly. "Where did he come from before?" "Yes." Qu Weiwei didn''t seem to see the emotion flowing in Li Yunze''s expression, but said with a smile, "ace used to be either in the vineyard or in the wine cellar, and he didn''t have much contact with outsiders. You shouldn''t have seen him." Li Yunze looked at he Yining again, with an indescribable emotion in his heart From the first time I saw this man named ''ace'' in the hospital, his temperament and aura were definitely not ordinary people. "I haven''t seen you for ten years. Ace has changed a lot..." Qu Weiwei sighed. "The boy who said he would stand beside Yining at the beginning didn''t think he was really standing beside her." Li Yunze looked at Qu Weiwei, "they used to..." "Yes, ACE used to like Yining very much." Qu Weiwei nodded. "At that time, Yining had the best relationship with ACE. When she was basically at home, she was with ACE." Li Yunze''s eyes were slightly deeper. Before Isn''t he Yining spending all his time on him?! Qu Weiwei looked at Jin shaosi, smiled and sighed in doubt: "ace liked Yining very much at that time. I remember once, Yining fell asleep under the grape shelf, and ACE kissed her..." Li Yunze''s face had become very ugly. Even when he turned his head, his eyes looked at young secretary Jin fiercely. "At that time, a reporter from wine magazine went to the vineyard for an exclusive interview and photographed that scene!" Qu Weiwei said, "the sunlight penetrates the grape rack and falls on Yining''s face on the recliner. As a kiss of almost worship, the beauty of the whole picture is unreal..." said, looking at Li Yunze, "Yining has always kept that picture..." Li Yunze narrowed his eyes slightly, and his temples moved slightly, revealing a feeling of forbearance. He Yining, that''s what you called ''all your thoughts are on me''?! Keep photos of other men kissing you ha-ha! Qu Weiwei''s eyes sank when she saw Li Yunze''s expression, and soon gathered her emotions. "I''ve been busy looking for a house and studio since I came back, and I haven''t had time to meet Yining. Today, it happens that Yunze..." Qu Weiwei circled Li Yunze''s arm, "let''s go and say hello!" Li Yunze took back his sight and looked at Qu Weiwei expressionless. "No!" Li Yunze lowered three words, took out Qu Weiwei''s arm and turned. "Yunze?!" Qu Weiwei called softly, then smiled awkwardly with the waiter, nodded apologetically, and turned to chase Li Yunze. After Li Yunze left the restaurant, he went straight to the parking space Qu Weiwei caught up and asked, "Yunze, what''s the matter?" "I have something to deal with temporarily, so I won''t eat with you." Li Yunze tried to resist the impulse to go back to the restaurant and drag why Ning away, "I''ll go first..." Li Yunze got into the car and left in front of Qu Weiwei. Qu Weiwei stood where she was, her eyes narrowed slightly with malice, and her hand holding the bag gradually clenched up Li Yunze, is it because Yining doesn''t care about your loss, or... You actually have hidden feelings for her that you don''t know?! ¡­¡­ He Yining didn''t know that Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei had been to the restaurant from beginning to end. He just talked to Jin shaosi while eating. As long as we talk one by one, the topic of he Yining will not stop, even if we say the same thing several times. Jin shaosi didn''t feel bored. While cooperating with he Yining to chat, she gradually fell into her happiness After dinner, Jin shaosi accompanied he Yining to a large children''s clothing and infant products store in Feilong department store. Just as they said something and stepped into the store with a smile... Behind a big column, a lens was stretched out to capture this moment. Chapter 1283 After Li Yunze left the restaurant, he was going back to his apartment. But before she arrived, she suddenly remembered that Qu Weiwei now lives in Yudu apartment. Li Yunze turned a little impatiently Just as the car turned, the car phone rang. Li Yunze looked at the incoming call displayed on the screen and answered, "boss long..." "Beichen and I are in heaven night. Come and have a drink when we have time." The calm voice of the Dragon owl came. Li Yunze was just upset and immediately answered the voice and went to heaven night ¡­¡­ "This set!" Jin shaosi looked at the two sets of clothes he Yining was hesitant about, pointed to one of them, and said, "or buy both." "It''s time to grow up. I buy too many clothes and sometimes I can''t wear them if I can''t wear them..." he Yining put down another set and motioned the clerk to ask for the yellow one. Jin shaosi looked at he Yining deeply, and his heart hurt even more. Once he Yining, I''m afraid she didn''t know how many clothes in the wardrobe were changed without even pulling off the tag Seeing why he Yining had to live carefully from a rich family to now, Jin shaosi felt unspeakably heavy. He Yining chose several clothes one by one and two pairs of shoes, and then wanted to check out "This gentleman has checked out." The clerk smiled and put the packed shopping bag on the floor. Jin shaosi naturally took over. When he wanted to speak, he took her and turned around and walked out. "How can I make you pay?" He Yining was dissatisfied. "Give me your account number later and I''ll transfer it to you." "I haven''t brought children, and I don''t know what I need to bring children..." Jin shaosi glanced at he Yining. "This is my gift for one by one. How to say, one by one is also called my uncle, isn''t it?" He Yining also wanted to say something, and even forgot that his hand was held by Jin shaosi in an intimate attitude. "Well, do you have to argue with me so much?" Jin shaosi said slightly lost, "these are really nothing to me now. I just want to do my best." Jin shaosi said so. He Yining was embarrassed to say anything more. "Next time you do this again, I won''t let you accompany me." Why rather muttered. Jin shaosi smiled, "OK..." When they left the store, they smiled at each other again. A "click" came from behind the pillars of the mall, but in such an environment, it was imperceptible. When the photographer saw that Jin shaosi and he Yining left, he looked at the photos in the camera with excited eyes, "there''s big news now, I don''t believe my website can''t get up..." ¡­¡­ In the night of heaven, the Dragon owl and Li Yunze continued to drink, and Gu Beichen had just left. Now Jane Mo is injected with silence, and the drug is a little tricky even for Li Yunze. Moreover, there are still some hidden problems within the emperor. If someone uses Jane Mo''s silence to force Gu Beichen at this time, I''m afraid there will be some uncontrollable consequences. The Dragon owl asked, "has silence got any results?" "No..." Li Yunze was a little weak, "disintegrated, and then combined, there will be qualitative change..." The Dragon owl frowned abruptly and looked at Li Yunze. "I tried to reorganize with other things, but failed..." Li Yunze frowned. The Dragon owl pondered and said, "if silence really flows out of the Mo palace, the matter between Shi Shaoqin and Beichen will be solved sooner or later." "I''m afraid that if Jane Mo is involved in turning back, Beichen will be unstable." Li Yunze said with a heavy heart. The black pupil of the Dragon owl is getting deeper and deeper. "Now there is Jane Mo, I believe he can survive..." Jian Mo is a double-edged sword for Beichen. Whether she succeeds or not depends on her. The Dragon owl put down his glass and got up. "I''m leaving." "Now?" Li Yunze frowned slightly, "where are you going?" "Seaside!" The Dragon owl put down his words and left. When Li Yunze saw that everyone had left, he Yining and the man who was a secretary were a little upset, so he simply left After the night out of heaven, Li Yunze thought that he could not go to the apartment and simply went to Huakang. Recently, he has been studying about the composition of silence, although there is no progress. Li Yunze returned to Huakang with an agitated mood and directly plunged into a research room set up in Huakang hospital, which is convenient for doing some research at ordinary times. "Li Shao!" It''s no surprise that those who are still working overtime in the research room see Li Yunze coming back. Li Yunze nodded and went to a small area isolated recently to study silence. However, Li Yunze sat there, but his mind was full of how he Yining smiled at the man in the restaurant at that time. Some fidgety rubbed his temples. Li Yunze got up and went to the bathroom to wake himself up. Time passes slowly under the joy and sorrow of several families The next day, the sunshine in Los Angeles scattered in every corner early. One by one, he leaned curiously on the window, looked at the gradually quiet area, fanned his eyelashes, and asked in a childish voice, "Mom, Xiaojie lives so far... No wonder it''s inconvenient to transfer to school or go to school!" He Yining smiled, "Xiao Jie''s school should be residential..." "Oh..." one by one, he answered angrily, but soon, he was attracted by villas and forgot his loss. The car stopped in front of the villa mentioned by Jane Morse. After paying the money, he Ning got out of the car with one by one, looked around the villa with a large area, and walked forward with one by one "It''s miss he and miss 11, isn''t it?" The guard asked and hurried to open the door. "Young lady and young master Jie are waiting inside!" "Thank you!" "Thank you, brother!" One by one also said sweetly. The guard immediately scratched his head a little shyly, smiled and shook his head. Why would you rather walk inside one by one? From a distance, you can see the busy figure under the sunshade. I was curious to see the villa. After all, it was the first time I entered such a big home. But when I saw the figure of Jian Jie, I immediately broke free of he Yining''s hand and ran to Jian Jie Gu Beichen looked at the one by one running to Jian Jie. Gradually, the ink pupil became deep. He Yining looked at Gu Beichen, "long time no see..." Jane Mo looked at he Yining curiously, "do you know him?" She always said that she called Yining and came one by one, but she didn''t hear Gu always say that he knew Yining?! "Really long time no see..." Gu Beichen said. Why Ning smiled and explained to Jian Mo, "I used to be in a circle, but later he family lost... Well, I naturally left that circle." Jane Mo listened to why Ning''s general explanation and didn''t continue to ask. She didn''t think it was very good. Anyway, you can inquire about it when you look back! Jane Mo said hello to he Yining and hurried into the villa to serve the pickled meat kebabs. "Mr. Gu, take care of Yining for me first!" Gu Beichen answered. When Jian Mo left, he looked at the one-to-one play with Jian Jie, looked at why Ning and asked, "Yunze''s?" Chapter 1284 11. He Yining looks very similar. However, for Gu Beichen, who grew up with Li Yunze, the similarity between her eyebrows and eyes and Li Yunze when she was a child is still very high. "Obvious!" He Yining didn''t hide it. He just looked at the one by one play with Jane Jie and was slightly lost. Although her experience is different from that of Jian Mo, Xiao Jie has been completed. Will her one by one... Be completed?! Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly. His voice made people unable to hear his emotions and said, "I''m not afraid to tell Yunze?" Why rather smile, "it doesn''t matter..." She took back her sight on one by one and put several strings of roast Intestines on the barbecue rack. "In fact, I''m not afraid of you." Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face coagulated slightly, and then recovered his calm indifference. He Yining is not afraid of Gu Beichen, because he can''t say! The twists and turns between her and Li Yunze are unknown to others. Gu Beichen is afraid he still knows very well exactly! Gu Beichen is very clear about what happened between he Yining and Li Yunze, because it is clear that some things are not too involved. Gu Beichen''s eyes seemed indifferent, but he Yining looked at them with a deep examination. He wondered when Yunze and he Yining went to bed Gu Beichen''s eyes crossed one by one. At the age of 11, between Yunze and Yining, it should be when Mo''er left Los Angeles for London Gu Beichen''s thoughts are a little far away. Because Mo''er had just left, he was a little decadent. Yunze basically mixed with him when he was not busy. Therefore, at that time, Gu Beichen was quite clear about Yunze''s affairs and time. If I have to say when I will have something to do with Yining, I''m afraid it''s the classmate gathering of medical school Gu Beichen looked at he Yining, and his sight became more and more profound. At the right time, Jane Mo took the pickled string and came out. Looking at the one who were listening to the milk bag carefully, she suddenly frowned. I don''t know why, she still feels a little familiar one by one. Who does she feel like But I can''t remember who I''m like?! "When you have something to eat, you can wash your hands with him and go to the barbecue one by one..." he Ning said. Gu Beichen answered the phone, motioned them to eat first, and then went back to the villa. After dealing with the matter, Gu Beichen looked at he Yining, who was talking with Jane Mo with a smile through the French window, and then his eyes fell on the greasy one by one who had eaten, and the ink pupil was deep. Xu missed it because he and Jian mo. even if Gu Beichen knew why Ning and Li Yunze were going to have a chance Although it is very likely that the two of them can not get together, it may lead to a struggle for custody. Gu Beichen sighed secretly. After all, he dialed Li Yunze''s phone "In the hospital?" Gu Beichen asked while connecting. "No..." Li Yunze drove the car. "No surgery was arranged at the weekend." "What''s up?" Gu Beichen then asked. Li Yunze said softly, "what''s the matter?" "Come and have dinner with me?" Gu Beichen''s voice was calm and indifferent. "It''s not over..." Li Yunze rubbed his eyebrows. After boss Erlong left last night, he went back to the laboratory to study silence until the morning. "I didn''t rest all night and went back to make up for sleep." Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, "really, but come?" "Beichen, are you busy?" Li Yunze frowned slightly and felt Gu Beichen a little strange. "Nothing." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and crossed his eyes with a touch of emotion, "go back and have a rest!" "Good!" Li Yunze didn''t think much and hung up. Gu Beichen raised his eyes and his eyes fell on one by one again Maybe it''s not time to meet?! "Didn''t I see you answer the phone at that time?" Jane pushed the door in, and at random said, "how can I make complaints about the weekend?" "I''m finished." Gu Beichen said with a spoiled smile. "Oh..." Jane Mo asked casually, "whose phone?" "Just called Yunze." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Jian Mo deeply, with a smile in his mouth. He felt that his Mo''er must be familiar with each other. Jane Mo frowned slightly, but the pupil of her eyes widened in an instant Gu Beichen''s thin lip side hooked up if there was no smile, it seems... Her little woman finally turned around. "One by one..." Jane Mo covered her mouth and asked, "is Yunze coming?" Gu Beichen shook his head. Jane Mo frowned. No wonder she felt a little familiar one by one. She was Li Yunze''s child Thinking of this, she glanced slightly at he Yining, "then why don''t you say it directly?" Xu is because she missed a few years. She can''t bear to miss the people around her. Gu Beichen looked indifferent, "four years ago, I failed to propose, you left, he laughed at me..." then, he stepped forward and motioned Jian Mo to go out together. Jane morleng didn''t move in place. She fanned her eyes and looked at Gu Beichen. The corners of her mouth twitched because of surprise "Are you really good at revenge?" Jian Mo muttered and followed Gu Beichen out of the villa. The happy time is very fast. There are Jane Jie one by one. Why would you rather have Jane Mo''s company? Obviously, both mother and daughter feel very full this weekend. But the full mother and daughter, and Li Yunze, who is making up his sleep, don''t know that there is a "heartbeat" whirlwind blowing on the Internet. "This man is the president of Jin''s group?" "Oh, my God, look at your shape..." "Who is this woman? It seems that she looks familiar..." "In the two photos released, the women are silhouettes, and they basically can''t see their faces. Who knows?!" "I envy this woman so much that she can hang up the president of Jin''s group..." a woman looked envious. "You don''t know that although Brunei is small and has a small population, the top-notch enterprises there may be rich." "There''s nothing to envy..." another woman said bitterly. "He hasn''t revealed anything about marriage. Now he can''t get married even if he buys children''s supplies." "But don''t worry about food and clothing?!" "That''s what I said..." In the discussion, the news gradually spread. Because it involves the president of Jin''s group, and Jin''s group has made great moves in Los Angeles recently. Jin''s group has not only acquired the winery and vineyard of who used to be, but also wants to enter in other aspects. There is no doubt that such lace news has immediately attracted the attention of many people. Su ruomin came in and looked at Jin shaosi standing in front of the hotel window with an empty red wine cup in his hand. "Boss, do you need to start PR processing?" Chapter 1285 Mr. Jin didn''t speak or move. He just looked at the distance Su ruomin didn''t continue to ask and stood quietly waiting. "I''m tired of staying in the hotel," Jin shaosi said slowly. "Buy an apartment near Shuya hospital!" "OK." Su ruomin was not surprised. Jin shaosi turned slowly, put the wine glass aside and said, "the alcohol and taste of the wine in the winery are too poor, the fermentation time and environment are also deviated, which is too different from the previous brewing technology of he family..." "I''ve been contacting several winemakers," Su ruomin said skillfully. "One of them is the winemaker of he family in those years. He left later. Now I don''t believe we really intend to make wine and I''m still hesitating." Jin shaosi is very relieved about Su ruomin''s ability to handle affairs. It can be said that he can win the Jin family''s industry step by step, thanks to Su ruomin. And this woman is very smart. Her biggest advantage is that she knows how to separate public and private, and this degree has always been well grasped. "Who?" Asked Jin shaosi. "Tan Zhonglang!" "Tan Zhonglang..." Jin shaosi whispered the name and suddenly smiled. "I''ll make an appointment and see you in person later." "OK." Su ruomin answered. "Let the news spread first," Jin shaosi turned to the outside again. "Go back and put some news out. I don''t want to have a bad impact on her." "Yes!" Su ruomin answered. She knows what boss means. In the news, it is mentioned that miss he is an unrecognized woman. Even if she is pregnant, she can''t walk into Jin''s house openly Although, we do not know that the woman in the picture is miss he. Can be very familiar, should still be able to vaguely guess. The boss wants to marry Miss He. Naturally, there is no such thing as being unable to straighten up. "Boss," Su ruomin said when she saw that Jin shaosi had nothing to say, "if there''s nothing else, I''ll do it first." "Yes." Jin shaosi answered faintly, but the corners of his mouth overflowed with a smile from his heart. Gradually, the smile spread across the whole face, and while the fundus of the eyes fainted, it turned into a smile of satisfaction because of expectation. Yining, although I don''t like such news very much, I think it''s good to be involved with you But what will you feel when you see it?! ¡­¡­ Qu Weiwei sat in the studio that had been renovated and was just waiting for the opening. Looking at the news on the computer, her vision gradually overflowed with a touch of reluctance. He Yining, why Why did he family fall down? When you couldn''t catch up with Li Yunze, ASI could become the president of Jin''s group? Even, ace has been away for ten years and still likes you? Why is your life so good? Why?! Qu Weiwei gradually narrowed her eyes. In her eyes, there were resentments accumulated from small to large. Since childhood, I have worked harder than you, and I am better looking than you. Even, I am better than you in all aspects For what? Just because you were born more noble than me?! Just because you are the daughter of what family, and I am just the daughter of your servant With a bang, Qu Weiwei smashed her clenched fist on the table. Du Peishan, who was doing the final inspection, was suddenly shocked and looked back at Qu Weiwei, "Weiwei, what''s the matter?" Qu Weiwei closed her eyes and took a deep breath. When she opened it again, she had gathered the emotion that had just emerged from the bottom of her eyes. She looked at Du Peishan with a smile and shook her head. "It''s all right. I just feel a little excited that the studio is about to open." "You are such a famous jewelry designer..." Du Peishan smiled. "How do foreign media evaluate you? You forget? High cooling, brilliant, light in the bright!" Du Peishan poured two glasses of water and took one to Qu Weiwei. "The brand of turning back has been officially announced. If the media knows that you have come back to open the studio, you must fry the pot." Qu Weiwei picked up her glass and drank water. She scratched a sharp line at the bottom of her eyes. She is now an internationally renowned jewelry designer, and why should she rather be a mediocre doctor Why would you rather like Li Yunze? Finally, as long as she wins Li Yunze, she can suppress he Yining all her life, can''t she?! ¡­¡­ I got up and went downstairs until three o''clock in the afternoon "Young master," aunt Qiao was cleaning. When she saw Li Yunze coming downstairs, she smiled and asked, "young master, what do you want to eat? I''ll prepare it." "Wait a minute," Li Yunze felt dizzy. "Aunt Qiao, make me a cup of coffee first." As soon as aunt Qiao heard this, she immediately sighed and shook her head. "Coffee is not good, and you have an empty stomach... Thanks to you being a doctor, no master knows how to keep fit." Li Yunze looked at Aunt Qiao innocently, "aunt Qiao, I stayed up very hard last night. Are you willing to complain about me here?" Aunt Qiao was angry and turned to make coffee for Li Yunze. Li Yunze dragged some heavy body to the sofa I drank a lot of wine on an empty stomach last night and spent all night thinking. Today, I obviously didn''t make up for it. I''m a little dizzy at the moment. Li Yunze rubbed his swollen temples and waited for coffee. Aunt Qiao is very fast. She brings a cup of coffee with a sponge cake. "Cushion it first. Don''t look back and have a stomachache." "Yes..." Li Yunze answered with a smile, "yes!" Aunt Qiao was amused by Li Yunze''s appearance. "If you are so big, you will play tricks!" Aunt Qiao shook her head helplessly and turned to continue to be busy She worked as a servant in the Li family very early. She watched the Li family grow up because she had no children. Subconsciously, she naturally fell in love with the Li family''s children. Just Aunt Qiao looked back at Li Yunze and sighed heavily. After the young master left, there were only two children, Miss Jinxi and young master Yunze... Although everyone didn''t mention the sad things in the past, who could forget the most dazzling star of the Li family?! Li Yunze obediently ate the quick cake and drank a cup of coffee, which obviously made him more energetic. There was a wechat prompt sound on the mobile phone. Li Yunze picked it up. It was Wang Zhihua, a pharmaceutical factory, who asked about the second batch of drugs, and he replied smoothly. Exiting the interface, there happened to be a wechat news push. He clicked in. The man in the targeted picture news made Li Yunze frown slightly. "The president of Jin''s group took a mysterious woman to the infant products store. It is suspected that he has been secretly married!" Li Yunze looked at the title and his first reaction was that the man was cheating he Yining''s feelings while he was secretly married With a sudden surge of anger, Li Yunze points into the news Chapter 1286 Li Yunze looked at the news and gradually frowned. When he saw the matching photos, he kept looking at the figure of the woman who couldn''t see clearly. Gradually, his eyes darkened Others may not recognize who the figure is, but Li Yunze can see why he Yining at a glance. Li Yunze forgot the anger that had just been clicked into the news, but looked at the figure of he Yining in the photo and gradually lost his mind She and he... Have children?! Are you pregnant or have a baby? Now that they have reached this point, why didn''t she refuse him that night? Is it just a dream to round the green years? Li Yunze''s mind was full of problems, and his hand holding the mobile phone was gradually clenched unconsciously. Suddenly Li Yunze dropped his hand and leaned slowly on the sofa. His sight fell in front of him without focus. Gradually, he lost his mind. "Li Yunze, you said, I like you so much. Why don''t you care at all?" That year, he Yining was only 15 years old. She lay on the table with her arms crossed, her chin on the back of her hands, and her eyes full of aura looked at Li Yunze who was also "asleep" on the table without blinking. Why Ning sighed long, his shoulders drooped, and his voice was a little stuffy: "Li Yunze, can''t you like me a little? Just a little... I don''t ask much. I''m so stingy and stingy!" He Yining said, put his cheek on the back of his hand, looked out of the window at the swaying branches and leaves, and gradually lost his mind Li Yunze slowly opened his eyes and entered the goal. Why would he rather lose his mind. "You don''t know," he Yining''s voice was suddenly a little fragile. "Weiwei said she wanted to race against time. She didn''t want to spend too much time on regular studies. She wanted to jump grades... At that time, I thought it was not a waste of time to study step by step. I just wanted to be in the same class with you and see you all the time..." He Yining said, and a brilliant smile gradually filled the corners of her mouth, as if she had been in the same class with Li Yunze and had the same table with him. Prepare breakfast for him every day, prepare water for him when he plays, and hand him a towel when he finishes playing Why do you want to be more beautiful? Your smiling eyes are bent into crescent moon. However, after a while, her smile was gradually replaced by sadness. He Yining''s nose is a little sour, and the corners of his mouth are sad "Alas..." he Yining gently fanned his eyes, "it''s beautiful to think about it, and the reality is bony!" She dropped her eyes. "If only I had Weiwei''s good learning ability!" Li Yunze looked at he Yining like this. At that moment, the sun passed through the branches and leaves outside the window and rustled on her face. With her delicate and pure appearance, it was charming. Li Yunze closed his eyes and rubbed his increasingly swollen temples. His whole face was uncomfortable and blocked. Some things, originally only when you look back, you will find how many traces have been left Since he and he Yining met again, he found that his memory was full of he Yining. But what can he do now? Even when she was in the South China Sea, there was a bit of confusion. Now she has a child with that ace. What else can he do? After messing up why Yining''s previous life, do you mess up her later life?! Thinking of this, Li Yunze smiled at himself secretly. The unspeakable uncomfortable feeling hit again "Young master, are you not feeling well?" Aunt Qiao looked at Li Yunze, who twisted her eyebrows as if she was forbearing, and asked with concern. Li Yunze slowly opened his eyes and looked at Aunt Qiao with some empty eyes. After several seconds, he gradually shook his head: "no, just didn''t have a good rest." "You said you are sleeping during the day and tossing in the hospital at night..." aunt Qiao began to talk, "can''t you sleep at night and do it during the day?" Li Yunze lowered his eyes and smiled. "You''re still young now. If you break your body, I''ll see what you can do in the future..." aunt Qiao poured a glass of boiled water and put it in front of Li Yunze. "Don''t look at you as a doctor. If you break your body, no matter how powerful a doctor is." Listening to Aunt Qiao nagging there, Li Yunze just smiled and didn''t refute. He knows that Aunt Qiao cares about him. "I''m already cooking health porridge. Even if you have something to do later, you can wait until you finish eating..." aunt Qiao explained. Li Yunze smiled, "OK!" Aunt Qiao turned to the kitchen with satisfaction and planned to get some more delicious dishes. Li Yunze took back his sight, raised his hand and opened the news again He looked at the report and said that the man named ASI is the current president of Brunei Jin group. Obviously, he should feel that he would rather find such a man and live a carefree life in the future However, I always feel that this man will not bring happiness to he Yining. ¡­¡­ It was already afternoon when he Yining and 11 went home. The little girl was playing crazy with Jian Jie at Gu Beichen''s house. Before she got home, she fell asleep in the car. "Miss He, shall I take you up?" The driver looked and slept heavily. "No, I can..." he Yining shook his head with a smile and took them out of the car one by one. As a qualified mother, even if she doesn''t have strength at ordinary times, she always seems to have endless strength when holding her child He Yining put them on the bed one by one, wiped her face with a wet towel, gently closed the door and planned to have a rest. Lying in bed, he Yining took his mobile phone and went to wechat as a routine When I saw that there were hundreds of messages in the student group, why should I be surprised. It is said that it is a group of students. In fact, it is a group established one by one when several associations had a good relationship in Luoyang University. We talked every day before graduation, but after graduation, this group gradually declined. Occasionally, a few messages are irrelevant. I didn''t expect to talk so much today. Why did Ning subconsciously point in Then she thought... If she had the ability to predict, she wouldn''t want to click it in her life. "Wei Wei, don''t you think so much..." "Yes, yes, you are the internationally famous jewelry designer Vivian! That''s great!" "My studio will open next Sunday. You can come and play when you have time..." Qu Weiwei said. "When you need it later, I can give you a discount!" "We can''t afford Vivian''s design. We can''t afford every design." "But time will pass when we look back. You are the only one around us. You are so awesome now!" "Yes, vivi, you''re great." Why did Ning stare? When did Qu Weiwei join this group? Just wondering, someone suddenly said: by the way, Yining is also in the group. Weiwei, have you come back to see Yining? Chapter 1287 Just chat, why pull her out?! He Yining secretly Tucao down, make complaints about Wei Wei, said: "is ningin also in the group?" Why didn''t you see her talking? "Probably not!" "It''s also very interesting to think about it. In the past, what family had a lot of scenery in Los Angeles, but later it declined." "Yes, Weiwei is different now..." a flatterer answered immediately. "Weiwei studied well before and went abroad after graduation. Now she has become so powerful. She depends on her own ability." "Yes, Weiwei depends on her own ability. Those powerful people in the family don''t have any eggs in the end." ¡°¡­¡­¡± "Hey, you women talk too hard." A man came out to accuse: Yining''s family used to be powerful. It can''t be blamed on Yining. Besides, Yining''s family has fallen. She didn''t say she doesn''t have any skills. Isn''t she a doctor now?! That''s a good job, too. "Yes, I met her last time I went to Shuya. I think she hasn''t changed at all. She has graduated for so many years and is still so young." "Really?" "Yes! I heard that my professional ability is also great!" After a while, he Yining saw that a group of people who flattered Qu Weiwei began to make cynicism and make trouble. Soon, those who spoke for her stopped talking. They didn''t speak. Naturally, the whole group became the world of fawning on Qu Weiwei "Trick!" Why Ning chuckled and just wanted to turn off his mobile phone, he received a certificate to add friends. Why would you rather see Qu Weiwei instead of adding, but you can see "I heard that you and ace are married?" When commenting on the news, she added it. Sure enough, curiosity killed the cat! "Yining, where are you?" Qu Weiwei said. Why would you rather break your face? Why is there such a stupid person like her in the world? Diving in the group, but when Qu Weiwei added the news of her friend, she added it and made it clear that the mobile phone was in her hand. Even if she didn''t watch the group, no one believed it. Besides, she is really diving Seeing why she would rather not answer, Qu Weiwei continued: "I saw the news about you and ACE today. I didn''t expect that ace has now become the president of Jin''s group. You can live a rich life again. Congratulations!" Why did Ning frown? What''s called ''she and ACE''? What is "she can live a rich life again"? What the hell And what does Qu Weiwei mean?! "What do you mean?" Why rather coldly asked. Qu Weiwei smiled: "seeing the news, you and ASI are secretly married and have children... ASI is so capable now. You have lived a rich life since childhood. After the collapse of he family, you can continue to be angry with ASI again, can''t you?" "Qu Weiwei, what are you talking about?" He Yining immediately sat up. "In fact, ACE is also good. Although you and Yunze can''t be together, it''s also good to be with him..." Qu Weiwei said with a smile. "After all, you had only ace in your eyes except Yunze." Why rather bite your teeth, "Qu Weiwei, do you have a psychological problem?" She sneered, "I don''t need you to comment on my relationship with ACE. In addition, I just added you with my hand slip. I think it''s insulting everyone to keep you in my friend!" He Yining finished and deleted Qu Weiwei. I''m afraid Qu Weiwei can''t send a message to her. She directly said in the group: "Yining, my studio opens this Sunday. I''ll send a post to your hospital. I think... You won''t come because of my current identity?" Qu Weiwei also specially told Aite he Yining, and said some words in the group to tell everyone that he Yining is online. "Bitch!" Why should Ning gnash his teeth and scold and dislike himself and say, "if you don''t sleep well, why do you have to play with your mobile phone when your hands are free?" Why should I be so angry that I fall back directly When the sound of "bang" came, I heard why the sound of "ow" came. Why Ning''s eyes turned red in an instant. She covered the back of her head, which had just been knocked against the head of the bed, and was immediately wronged. The grievance came quickly. Why should I rather have no time to bear it? Tears fell down. "Li Yunze, son of a bitch, it''s all you!" Why Ning was so angry that he gnashed his teeth and scolded a few times. He didn''t know what nerve he had sent. He took his mobile phone and dialed Li Yunze''s number. Li Yunze just arrived at the hospital. His mobile phone rang and took it out. Seeing why Yining called him, there was a joy in his eyes that couldn''t think deeply. Pick up "Li Yunze, you son of a bitch, your own woman, please take care of it, bitch!" He Yining finished scolding and hung up the phone without waiting for Li Yunze to speak. Li Yunze stood in place and was directly scolded by he Yining Slightly wring his eyebrows, Li Yunze dialed back again "Hello, the number you dialed has been turned off. Please redial later!" "..." Li Yunze''s eyebrows tightened more, and he couldn''t help whispering, "what and what?" Li Yunze dropped his hand holding the mobile phone and thought to himself: it was she and Jin shaosi who were exposed. She scolded him first when she came back! Li Yunze went to the elevator with a dark face. Someone greeted him along the way, but he ignored it. ¡­¡­ Li Jinxi stood in the center of Adrian concert hall with virtual chest rings and sighed slightly at the white grand piano under a beam of light and Su Junli who was playing the piano. The sound of "Dang" came, and the sound of the piano stopped suddenly. Li Jinxi frowned and stepped forward, "you don''t calm down." Su Jun''s gentle and handsome face was slightly self mocking. He got up slowly and sat down casually at the edge of the table. "Are you sure you want to play this one at the end of the concert?" Li Jinxi asked. Su Junli looked at the empty concert hall, which was filled with the smell of Jian Mo everywhere. He couldn''t help but look a little deeper. "Mo Mo can be happy, for me... It''s good." Li Jinxi sighed deeply, "although Momo and Beichen are very good now, in fact, you have been with Momo for more than four years, why didn''t you take her?" Su Junli took back his sight and lowered his eyes to remove the faint sadness from the bottom of his eyes. "She can''t forget Gu Beichen. How can I let her stay with me with regret?" After a pause, he looked at Li Jinxi, "Jinxi, if you were to leave Chen Yu and go to another man, would you forget Chen Yu?" Li Jinxi shrugged, "who knows?" She smiled. "If Chen Yu dares to hurt me, I will abandon him!" "Really?" Su Junli smiled. Everyone is in the same circle. Su Junli still knows Li Jinxi and Su Junli. Looking at the big nerve, she is a strong woman at work... But in her bones, she is very delicate. How can you say you''re leaving when you show your love with Chen Yu all day? "Jinxi, when you really love someone..." Su Jun fell in front of him again. "You want each other to be good and greedy, even if you are obviously hurt, but you don''t want to leave..." Li Jinxi looked at Su Junli and sighed. She couldn''t understand what he said. The main reason was that she and Chen Yu didn''t realize these sorrows from recognizing the love to getting married. However, what Li Jinxi didn''t expect at the moment is that one day when she also faced a choice, she knew how helpless and painful Su Junli''s injury was?! Chapter 1288 Time passes day by day. After the news of Jin shaosi and he Yining came out that day, Jin shaosi did not intend to use public relations. But soon, he found a problem If he is dug deep, Li Yunze knows the existence of one by one. Isn''t it a trouble for him?! He Yining went to sleep after shutting down the machine. The news about the hidden marriage of the president of Jin''s group seemed to have never appeared before. It never appeared in people''s vision except for private discussion. News, in today''s information developed society, is updated very quickly. Soon, on Friday, piano prince Su Junli held a concert in Adrian Concert Hall named after his English name and designed by Gu Beichen''s wife Jian Mo, which swept the attention of the industry and fans, and became the latest conversation. Then, in recent years, the famous jewelry designer Vivian, who is full of mystery and low-key, has escaped the deep excavation of the media, moved her career back to China and settled in Los Angeles. As soon as the news was released, the media of all parties began to contact the studio in order to get the follow-up interview in the store. "Zihan, Vivian''s studio is open. You go with her." Editor in chief Jiang Yuehua ordered. Fang Zihan immediately said, "sister Xue, I won''t follow this woman. I''d rather keep the star cheating than go." "This is a good opportunity," Jiang Yuehua was immediately dissatisfied. "The report is good. You can show your face at the editor in chief when you look back. You''re still proud." Jiang Yuehua is Fang Zihan''s sister. When Fang Zihan entered the school, she had graduated. On weekdays, the elder sister takes good care of Fang Zihan and gives her some good opportunities to follow. Unfortunately, Fang Zihan is a little cranky and doesn''t like people who don''t like to follow. "Even if I spend my whole life watching and catching cheating, I won''t go with this woman." Jiang Yuehua frowned. In the past, even if Fang Zihan didn''t want to, he was grinding with her. When was his attitude so tough?! "Forget it, let others go if you don''t follow me..." Jiang Yuehua had a headache and motioned Fang Zihan to close the glass door of the office. After Fang Zihan closed the door, he changed his tough attitude at that time and began to pretend to be poor. She was small and had a baby face. Now she pretended to be poor, just like a wronged child who wanted to seek comfort in front of her parents, but was afraid of being scolded. "You just install it for me..." Jiang Yuehua picked her chin. "Just say it. What''s going on?" Fang Zihan whispered for a long time. Finally, under Jiang Yuehua''s sharp and domineering eyes, he said, "Vivian is Qu Weiwei." "Isn''t it?!" Jiang Yuehua was surprised, "she didn''t study design in school before?!" "In private, she also painted some playfully and read some jewelry design books." Fang Zihan sat down in the chair. "At that time, she chose management, but it was because the major came quickly." Jiang Yuehua helped her forehead, "Zihan, no matter what you have, I hope you have a clear distinction between public and private in your work." Fang Zihan also knew that she had just been a little too willful. In fact, if it wasn''t for her sister, she couldn''t say she wouldn''t follow anyone. "Think about it this time!" Jiang Yuehua said, "it''s very possible that I''ll be transferred to the headquarters. If you work under the new editor in chief, can you still be so capricious?" Fang Zihan heard about Jiang Yuehua''s transfer, "I know..." "All right, go and help you!" Fang Zihan nodded and got up to leave. Maybe it''s because Qu Weiwei is successful now, and maybe it''s because Jiang Yuehua may leave. Fang Zihan only feels a little uncomfortable. She packed her backpack, took the SLR and left the magazine, ready to talk to other news With a "Ding" sound, the elevator arrived. At the moment when the elevator door opened, she walked in with her shoulders down and didn''t notice anyone coming out at all. A bang came, and then Fang Zihan''s hand slipped, and the SLR he was holding fell to the ground with a bang. Her heart trembled when she heard the sound of broken lenses. "How can you walk without looking?" Fang Zihan looked up and began to get angry, completely rushing out the anger accumulated in his heart. The man looked at Fang Zihan and frowned slightly, "it seems that you don''t see the way?!" With a sarcastic voice and a touch of helplessness, Fang Zihan just wanted to argue, but at the thought that it seemed that she didn''t look at the road, she suddenly... Her anger went out. Fang Zihan picked up the SLR and looked painfully at the lens on the head of his glasses. After looking at the man with resentment, he prayed that the fuselage would not be broken. The man looked at Fang Zihan and entered the elevator without tears. His eyes couldn''t help looking up ¡­¡­ "Mom, what are you thinking?" Blinking at he Yining one by one, "I''ve seen you for a long time, and you haven''t found it." "Ah?" He Yining couldn''t react on his face, "didn''t you think about anything?!" One by one, "mom has something on her mind." He Yining looked at his innocent daughter and gradually lost his mind Yesterday, Mao ting from the group went to Shuya hospital for pre marital gynecological examination. She happened to be on duty. And the husband Mao Ting wants to marry is also in that group Maybe it was a coincidence at the beginning, but why Ning had a deep feeling that she was routine. He Yining thought of yesterday''s situation and felt that Qu Weiwei must have been sent by heaven to disgust her. "Yining, I heard you were in surgery before. Why are you in obstetrics and Gynecology again?" Mao Ting asked. "I''m going to transfer." He Yining said dismissively. "Really?" Mao Ting was immediately surprised. "That''s great. Jianyu and I are going to have children when we get married. Then I''ll come to you for birth inspection in the future..." "..." he Yining immediately twitched at the corners of her mouth, and she smiled awkwardly, "OK!" Why Yining scolded herself hundreds of times? Why doesn''t she know how to refuse?! Sure enough "By the way, Weiwei studio opens the day after tomorrow. Are you going alone or with your husband?" "I have no husband..." "Where''s your boyfriend?!" "No..." "Isn''t it?" Mao Ting widened her eyes. When she saw why Yining becoming more and more embarrassed, she said shyly, "but I''m not in a hurry. I''m not in a hurry at home, and I didn''t intend to be so early." "Ha ha..." he Yining can only laugh. "Well, Jianyu and I will pick you up on Sunday, and then the three of us will go together!" He Yining originally wanted to say that she had no time to be on duty. Before she spoke, she was interrupted by Mao ting. "Don''t tell me you don''t have time to go to work..." Mao Ting said with an eyebrow. "Many people in the group went there that day. Everyone has said that it''s just like a club party. After graduation, everyone doesn''t have time to get together. Therefore, even if you have a class, you have to adjust it." Chapter 1289 "But..." "Stop!" Mao Ting interrupted he Yining again. "It''s settled..." paused, "where''s your home?" He Yining had a headache. Looking at Mao Ting''s appearance of "it''s impossible for her not to go", she said weakly, "don''t answer it. I''ll just go there myself." "Sure!?" Mao Ting confirmed. Why rather dry pull the corners of his mouth and nod. "I''ll write down your phone number first." "...." he Yining sighed and could only report his mobile phone number. "Mom, why are you in a daze again..." he tooted his mouth one by one. Why should Ning suddenly wake up, "Oh, I just want to be busy tomorrow." "I can be at home alone tomorrow," said one by one. "Of course, if you don''t trust me, you can ask Uncle Si to take care of me." "..." why did Ning take a breath from the corner of his mouth. One by one, he turned his head and said with a smile, "Mom can also send me to Uncle Si''s house." "..." why did Ning droop his shoulders. That day, Zihan told her about the news of being "destroyed". It has been said that she and ASI are in a hidden marriage relationship. It would be great if they were photographed one by one later. Ace is still single. He can''t be influenced to find a girlfriend because of these groundless news?! Besides, if his current identity is suddenly photographed one by one, the news will be known to everyone. Ace should also be afraid of such gossip, so she didn''t have time to see the news that day, so the news disappeared. He Yining is clear about the means and speed of dealing with news in rich and powerful families. "Mom, you didn''t listen to me!" One small face is full of anger. "Tomorrow you go to Aunt Yanyan," he Yining said. "I''ll pick you up after I''m busy..." One by one, he murmured, "but I want to go to Uncle Si!" "Uncle Si is too busy recently. You will disturb his work when you go." "When mom was on a business trip, she didn''t disturb uncle Si''s work one by one..." "..." why did Ning twitch at the corners of her mouth? She was surprised that she liked ace so much. Just thinking about how to tell them one by one, the doorbell suddenly rang. Why Ning sighed softly and went to open the door. When he saw that it was Jin shaosi, he sighed again in his heart: sure enough, he couldn''t say anyone. He was read when he said it. "Ace?!" Why rather shouted, with a trace of embarrassment in his face. Seeing why Ning didn''t move after opening the door, Jin shaosi smiled, "why, don''t you plan to let me in?" He Yining reacted and hurried out of the way. Jin shaosi stepped in, and his little figure rushed over like a butterfly. After he caught it, he picked it up one by one "Uncle Si, my mother and I just talked about you!" One by one, his eyes were filled with a smile. "Oh?" Jin shaosi said softly, and his sight crossed why he Ning. He Yining pulled the corners of his mouth in some embarrassment. Just opening his mouth to explain something, he was robbed one by one. "Mom has something to do tomorrow. We are discussing whether uncle Si will come to take care of me or whether I will ''annoy'' Uncle Si at Uncle Si''s house!" Jin shaosi smiled, "you come to Uncle Si. Uncle Si is too happy. How can you be bothered?" "Mom said it would delay your work..." one by one. "You''re so good. I''m reading books when I''m working. I don''t delay at all!" "Mom, you see?!" One by one proudly raised his little chin, "I said, I won''t delay uncle Si''s work." "OK, you are reasonable to you..." why would you rather turn your eyes, "I must have given birth to a fake daughter, so dismantle my platform!" Jin shaosi looked at why he was rather charming, and his eyes became gentle. "However, uncle Si has no time to take care of one by one tomorrow." "Why?" Lost immediately. "Because Uncle Si will take his mother to work tomorrow." One by one, the lost little eyes lit up immediately, "really? Why didn''t mom say that just now?" He Yining also looks at Jin shaosi curiously. She is going to open Qu Weiwei''s studio tomorrow. Will ace take her to work? Why doesn''t she know Jin shaosi explained one by one. The little girl immediately compromised and said that she could be at home alone or go to yanmiao''s house. "What are you going to do tomorrow?" Why should I rather see that one by one I went to watch TV and frowned at Mr. Jin. Jin shaosi looked at him and said with a gentle smile, "didn''t she invite you to the opening of Vivian studio tomorrow?" "Invited you too?!" Why would you rather stare. "Handed the post," Jin shaosi said slowly. "I don''t like her level, but I guess you''re going, so I''ll go with you." The faint words showed disdain in a certain mood, and now Jin shaosi''s identity doesn''t exaggerate at all. Even though Qu Weiwei is now a well-known jewelry designer! "I didn''t want to go..." he Yining drooped his shoulders again. Jin shaosi looked at he Yining with deep eyes, and his eyes were full of heartache. He and Qu Weiwei were the children of he''s servant before. He Tianshu is a generous man. Therefore, when he was appreciated, Qu Weiwei can always get a good education. It''s just that people... Are always different. Jin shaosi came forward and took he Yining''s hand He Yining subconsciously retracted because of what he reported and wanted to distance himself from Jin shaosi. Unfortunately, Jin shaosi held it directly while she was moving. "Yining," Jin shaosi whispered, "you''ve always been you and won''t change because of those external things, will you?" He Yining raised his eyes to shaosi Jin and listened to him continue: "since some people can''t avoid it, tell her that you still live well..." With a low voice and an emotion that people can''t explore, Jin shaosi looked at why Ning smiled... Some opportunities are to be created by himself, although some are not bright. But if some people don''t give "opportunity", even if they create it, it''s useless, isn''t it?! ¡­¡­ The next day, the summer sun in Los Angeles was still hot. Vivian''s private customized jewelry studio opened, and the media had gathered in front of the studio early in the morning, waiting Looking at Qu Yunze''s finished jewelry for a while, Pei Wei calls Li Wei today. "It''s half an hour before the shooting and ribbon cutting. Is Li Shao going to step on the spot?" Qu Weiwei''s voice was laughing with teasing. "On the way." Li Yunze spoke faintly, and there was no too much emotion in his voice, "ten minutes." Chapter 1290 The opening of Vivian studio not only brought many people in the industry, but also some famous ladies and daughters. It''s not time yet. There are many people around and in the store "Tingting..." Qu Weiwei saw Mao ting and Xin Jianyu coming and greeted them. "Vivi, you''re great!" Mao Ting looked around, her eyes full of envy. "I''ve designed all the wedding jewelry you mentioned to me before. Are you satisfied with coming here?" Qu Weiwei said with a smile. "So fast?!" Qu Weiwei nodded and took Mao ting and Xin Jianyu to the inner design room "Jianyu!" Suddenly, someone shouted behind him. Looking back, Xin Jianyu saw that he was a good friend of his club in college, so he said "let them see it first" to Mao ting and Qu Weiwei and went to the man. Qu Weiwei looks at Xin Jianyu and takes Mao ting into the design room. After seeing the design, Mao Ting liked it very much. "Weiwei, it''s so beautiful... I''m worthy of being a designer. I found shit this time." "If you are satisfied, I will send the design drawings to the factory later. Just pay the cost with Jianyu. I am very familiar with that factory." Qu Weiwei said. Mao Ting looked at Qu Weiwei with gratitude and joy on her face, and the envy in her eyes was even greater. "By the way, how many people are there in the group today? I''ll ask my assistant to arrange it later." Qu Weiwei asked unintentionally. Mao Ting is a smart person. A designer like Qu Weiwei designed her wedding jewelry as a gift, and she naturally understood what it meant. "There are a lot of people coming. Why should I come here?" Mao Ting said, "I was checking in Shuya before. I happened to meet her and made an appointment... Weiwei, you know, Yining will do whatever he promised." Qu Weiwei smiled. Everyone knew it but didn''t say it. This is what smart people will do The light of her eyes flowed, and Qu Weiwei drew a sneer at the bottom of her eyes. From beginning to end, there is only one fool, why Ning? Just like her, she still wants to catch up with Li Yunze?! ¡­¡­ Why should I rather sit in the car with my eyes down and watch my hands cross, the little movement of my two thumbs turning constantly, and gradually prick the corners of my lips. "What''s the matter?" Jin shaosi tilted his head and looked at the small movement of why he Ning. He Yining raised his eyes and looked at Jin shaosi. He took a deep breath and said, "ah Si, we''re not going to pass..." "Well?" Jin shaosi was puzzled. He Yining let go of her hand and seemed to open the tangle in her heart. "Qu Weiwei wants me to go because she wants to prove that everything she has today depends on herself and wants to hit me in the face." After a pause, he Yining continued, "I know why I put my face out to beat her?" Jin shaosi''s eyes on he Yining gradually deepened "You are now the president of Jin''s group. As you said, Qu Weiwei is not qualified for you to attend..." he Yining took back his eyes and said calmly, "you go because you don''t want me to be hurt because of her." Jin shaosi was silent. Yining sometimes just couldn''t stand the excitement. This weakness often became a means for many people to manipulate her. But when she calmed down, she was not a fool. "I don''t want to go, not just because I don''t want to have too much intersection with Qu Weiwei. After all, many things have been turned out for so many years, and now they make me uncomfortable. It''s unnecessary." He Yining looked at Jin shaosi again, "in addition, you accompany me there. There must be a lot of multimedia over there. I don''t want to cause your burden..." "I don''t mind." Jin shaosi said in a hoarse voice. "But I mind!" He Yining felt guilty in her eyes, "I don''t want the outside world to misunderstand you because of me..." paused, and she gently bit her lower lip, "ace, mainly, I don''t want to!" Different from the "don''t want" in the previous sentence, the only three word "I don''t want" has a touch of sad helplessness. Jin shaosi looked at he Yining''s eyes deeper and deeper. Until the bottom of his eyes crossed a touch of self mockery, he asked sadly: "Yining, you know..." He Yining didn''t dare to see Jin shaosi''s increasingly hot expectation at the bottom of his eyes. He lowered his eyes and said, "ah Si, I''m really happy to meet you again, because I really don''t have any relatives." She raised her eyes and looked at Jin shaosi again. "I didn''t think much at first. Last night, because I couldn''t sleep, I thought about it and asked about the news that Zihan was lost by you. I guessed a little." In fact, she was not sure just now She said "no" just because she couldn''t let go of Li Yunze. But as he was now, he had told her that his feelings for her were not what she thought. Lu Fan glanced at the back seat from the rear-view mirror and sighed when he looked at Jin shaosi who was rather affectionate. The car is still moving in the direction of Vivian''s studio. Jin shaosi hasn''t ordered it, and Lu Fan hasn''t turned back yet. The atmosphere inside the car gradually became strange, with a touch of sadness. "Because..." Jin shaosi scratched a vague complex emotion at the bottom of his eyes, as if unwilling to continue, but he could only continue to ask, "because of Li Yunze?!" He Yining dodged his eyes and said subconsciously, "no..." But she just said one word. She closed her mouth and sighed gently. At the same time, she drooped her shoulders. Jin shaosi''s mouth gradually filled with self mockery. His lips moved back and forth. He wanted to ask something, but he didn''t ask anything at last. "Lu Fan..." ¡°Boss£¿¡± "Look back." Jin shaosi spoke faintly. Lu Fan looked at Jin shaosi from the rearview mirror, sighed and replied, "yes!" On the way back, the atmosphere in the narrow carriage became more and more dignified because of silence. He Yining sighed softly, obviously helpless under some guilt. Jin Ning looked at Shaoli with deep eyes. Yining, now that you know my mind, it seems... I don''t need to wait slowly. I need to speed up my steps to let you know that there is not only Li Yunze in this world to make you happy. ¡­¡­ The news that Li Yunze arrived at the opening of Vivian studio is definitely an unexpected harvest for the media. "Excuse me, Li Shao, what''s the relationship between you and Vivian?" "Li Shao, you have come to the opening of the studio in person. Your relationship with Miss Vivian must be not simple?" "Miss Vivian, can you tell me what your relationship is with Li Shao? Li Shao seldom attends such occasions. Are you lovers?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The media seemed to smell the gossip, and the questions thrown out one after another were all about the exploration of the relationship between Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei. After all, Li Yunze, the most famous successor of the Li family in the medical field of Los Angeles and the best friend of emperor president Gu Beichen, has never disclosed any woman. Chapter 1291 Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze and saw that he looked calm and light. It seemed that she didn''t mind how the media wanted to write, but it seemed that she wouldn''t allow it?! Qu Weiwei took back her sight, glanced across the crowd, still didn''t see why Ning, and couldn''t help but frown. As Mao Ting said, Yining''s personality is something that can be promised even if she is uncomfortable. She will do it Since you promised Mao Ting, it''s impossible not to come?! Is it... Nearby or on the way here? Qu Weiwei thought, but the smile on her face was still generous and decent. She listened to the continuous questions of the media, raised her eyebrows and said slowly: "Yunze and I are childhood friends. I''m very happy to have the support of friends when I return home this time..." The routine answer didn''t let the media pass, but Qu Weiwei also knew that on such an occasion, she didn''t need to say anything more. The media can naturally make up n versions of stories. When the studio opened, Qu Weiwei and Li Yunze cut the ribbon. He Yining didn''t come until the end. Mao Ting didn''t give up calling he Yining, but she found that she couldn''t get through all the time. "There won''t be any accident or fall into the mountains?" Mao Ting murmured maliciously, "the phone has been unable to get through. At first glance, it''s an escape... Sure enough, the hairless Phoenix is not as good as the chicken." Mao Ting said, looking at Qu Weiwei, she saw what she was saying to Li Yunze. Her dimple looked like a flower, especially with temperament. "Weiwei is good-looking and capable. Why should she chase Li Yunze for so long? Finally, Li Yunze was with Weiwei..." "Tingting, everyone shouted to discuss where to get together in the evening..." Xin Jianyu came over at the right time. Mao Ting took back her eyes. "If there''s anything to discuss, just ask Weiwei." She smiled, "Li Yunze is here. What''s the matter? Go to the emperor''s club or something?" Xin Jianyu frowned, "the consumption over there is so high, I''m afraid some people share it with some difficulty." "Jianyu, what are you talking about?" Mao Ting smiled. "With Li Yunze here, how can we share it? He can''t give Weiwei a long face... Besides, Li Yunze doesn''t care about that little money. Is it okay for the emperor''s president to collect money with Li Yunze?" Hearing what Mao Ting said, Xin Jianyu not only didn''t feel justified, but felt a little uncomfortable. He looked at Mao Ting''s proud face. While frowning, he looked at Li Yunze who was talking to Qu Weiwei "It''s estimated that everyone will get together in the evening. If you''re okay, let''s go together?" Qu Weiwei always smiles, not too ambiguous, generous and decent. "I''m not going," Li Yunze said calmly. "Today I''m coming, and I don''t even care how the media want to write..." paused. "Weiwei, we didn''t end our relationship before, that''s all!" The smile on Qu Weiwei''s face suddenly couldn''t hang, "Yunze, you......" she tried to pull the corners of her mouth, "what do you mean?" "It was a mistake for us to be together." Li Yunze''s voice was calm. "If you''ve been abroad, I don''t think you need to be a burden on each other, but now that you''re back, you should always say something." "But..." Qu Weiwei''s expression gradually shrouded in the forbearance of sadness, and stopped talking, showing pity. "I have no mind for you. I didn''t have it before and I don''t have it now." Li Yunze sighed comfortably, "you are so excellent now. You should look for a more suitable one." "How do you know that you are not more suitable for me?" Qu Weiwei tried to bear the inner waves and waves, so she pretended to be calm on her face. "Because I don''t have you in my heart, how can it be suitable?" In fact, if Mingwei doesn''t laugh at her, she asks, "even if Mingwei doesn''t control her smile?" Li Yunze frowned. Qu Weiwei smiled more brightly. Her eyes stared at Li Yunze tightly. She didn''t look like a woman who was "abandoned", but seemed to end the relaxation under the farce. "You talk about you. You are Yining in your heart, and you missed it with him..." Qu Weiwei said, "now that she is also with ACE, you can see your heart." Li Yunze made a self mockery at the bottom of his eyes, which was fleeting, "Weiwei..." "All right," Qu Weiwei said with a smile, "I know that our relationship will officially end." Seeing that Qu Weiwei didn''t care much, Li Yunze nodded, "I''ll go first." "OK..." Qu Weiwei answered and saw that Li Yunze wanted to turn around. She suddenly grabbed him. Li Yunze stopped and looked at Qu Weiwei suspiciously. Qu Weiwei pulled his sleeve with a smile, stood on tiptoe and said with a smile in Li Yunze''s ear: "Yunze, I hope everyone can be happy..." Li Yunze tilted his head slightly, looked at his face close to him, and gradually lost his mind Everyone can be happy Yes, what a good wish! Li Yunze smiled, "yes." Qu Weiwei let go of Li Yunze. From beginning to end, except when Li Yunze just wanted to clarify their relationship with each other, she didn''t deal with her expression in place for a moment. "Go and be busy..." Li Yunze nodded and turned to leave. Looking at the back of him leaving, Qu Weiwei gradually put away the smile on her face. Turning around, she glanced over the media person who was looking at the picture she had just taken, and she sneered. Even if I can''t get it, he Yining, I won''t let you have a chance to get ¡­¡­ In the high-end western restaurant, there is soft music. He Yining silently holds a glass of water and wants to break such silence, but he doesn''t know what to say? "Not hungry?" Jin shaosi asked with a faint sigh. He Yining raised his eyes, "ace, I......" Jin shaosi called the waiter. After ordering the meal, he said to he Yining, "Yining, I have never been a family member to you... When I left, I told you that one day, I can be the person standing beside you." He Yining tightened his hand holding the cup. "Ace, I''ve never put him down. When you left, I was infatuated with him, but now I''m only a lot..." she laughed at herself, "but now I can''t turn back like before." "It doesn''t matter," Jin shaosi said with deep eyes. "I treat you like you treat Li Yunze... But what I seem to be better than him is that you don''t hate me!" In a word, it conveys a message to he Yining. Li Yunze hates why he Ning Yes, he hated her when he grew up. Even now that Qu Weiwei is back, she has to face a problem that Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei are lovers Chapter 1292 Why is Ning''s nose sour in an instant? Fortunately, she has such self-knowledge. After all, it''s not a day or two for Li Yunze to hate her Why rather hang your eyes and still hold the cup in your hand, but it''s getting tighter and tighter. "Ace..." he Yining''s voice was a little dry. "I know, you don''t need to remind me." Looking at such a humble he Yining, Jin shaosi was both angry and distressed. He sighed deeply, "I can understand you, and I hope you can understand me..." He Yining raised his eyes and looked at Jin shaosi. The corners of his mouth moved back and forth. He didn''t know what to say?! Jin shaosi sighed, "Yining, I want to take care of you and one by one, and I can be with you..." paused, "how can you know that your life has always been on Li Yunze, not on me?" "But..." "No, but!" Jin shaosi said, "you can persist for so many years. Why should you persuade others not to persist? You are... Unfair!" If he Yining wanted to persuade, he choked in his throat and felt uncomfortable. "Maybe one day, when you turn around, you will find another me..." Jin shaosi came forward and gently grabbed why Ning''s hand on the cup and held it in the palm of his hand. "We should all give ourselves a chance, shouldn''t we?" Why do you want to pull back your hand, but Jin shaosi holds it tighter. "It took me ten years to stand by your side. You made me leave without any effort. How cruel is it to me?" Jin shaosi made a self mockery at the corner of his mouth. He knows that pressure should not be given at this time. Even, he has many ways to blacken Li Yunze But that''s not the love he wants. Love obtained by means, is that still love? He wants Yining to stand beside him willingly. He wants to watch the sunrise and sunset together The love under the grape shelf should be pure and beautiful, and should not be mixed with too many means. Although he doesn''t know how long he can hold on "I won''t force you," Jin shaosi looked at he Yining''s eyes gradually deep, "but you can''t deprive me of my right to be around you." "A si..." he Yining didn''t want to give Jin shaosi those blind waiting, because she knew that Li Yunze was the one she couldn''t let go in her life. Even if you get hurt But when she looked at Jin shaosi with forbearance, she suddenly felt that she was such a person who couldn''t put it down, but advised others to put it down? It''s not persuasive at all, is it?! "Ace," he Ning said with a tight mouth, "I can''t deprive you of your right to be around me, but I won''t fall in love with you!" Some things that should be made clear must be made clear. She has no right to stop and deprive ace of his freedom, but she doesn''t want to give him unrealistic illusions. The bottom of Jin shaosi''s eyes crossed with a touch of sadness, but it soon converged and cleaned up. "OK..." Jin shaosi answered. It''s always good to be around. At least, he doesn''t have no chance at all. People''s hearts are not iron and cannot be covered Compared with Li Yunze''s "harm" to Yining, his company will eventually have a chance one day. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze sat in Gu Beichen''s office, lazily and casually, changing his image outside. Gu Beichen is making a batch of documents, taking the time to look at him, and he says, "are you free?" "Yes." Li Yunze answered at will. "Is Huakang going bankrupt?" Gu Beichen asked venomously. Li Yunze said "ha ha" twice, "even if the emperor goes bankrupt, Huakang won''t go bankrupt..." he glanced, "in this world, there are unemployed people and medical people every day!" Gu Beichen didn''t think so. He just pressed the inside line, "come in." Soon there was a knock at the door and Susan came in. "Let''s follow up the progress of phase II of Xiaocheng..." "OK." Susan received the approved documents and answered. When her eyes crossed Li Yunze, she suddenly stopped and smiled, "Li Shao, are you lovelorn?" "Shit," Li Yunze blew his hair as soon as he heard it. "Which eye of yours saw that I was lovelorn?" Susan compared her eyes. "Two!" "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth. Susan smiled and turned away from the office. "Your secretary is becoming more and more disrespectful..." Li Yunze said discontentedly, "I dare to make fun of you!" "You don''t control her economy. What does she have to take into account?" Gu Beichen got up, went to the wine cabinet, took the wine, poured himself a cup, and went to Li Yunze to sit down. "However, you and Qu Weiwei have settled that matter, which can also be regarded as lovelorn." "How can I lose without love?" Li Yunze resumed his casual appearance. "How''s silence doing?" Gu Beichen asked. Li Yunze helped the forehead, "there has been no breakthrough." Gu Beichen was silent and sighed softly. Li Yunze patted Gu Beichen on the shoulder. Without saying anything, he clinked his glass Before the wine was delivered to his mouth, Li Yunze''s mobile phone rang. Li Jiyuan called. "Dad..." "Old Lin is not very well," said Li Jiyuan. "Go and have a look." "Now?" "Well," said Li Jiyuan, "people are in the general manager of the army." "OK." Li Yunze answered and was about to hang up when he heard Li Jiyuan ask, "Yunze, what''s the situation between you and Qu Weiwei?" "What''s going on?" Li Yunze frowned, "I have nothing to do with her." "Well, you can handle it without delay. Don''t procrastinate. It''s been several years and people have come back from abroad..." "I''ve dealt with it." Li Yunze thought about what Li Jiyuan said about his opening of Qu Weiwei''s studio. "Today is a friend''s support and the last gift." "That''s good..." Li Yunze and Li Jiyuan said two more words, hung up the phone, spoke to Gu Beichen, left the emperor and went to the military general hospital. ¡­¡­ Weekend nights are charming, but people always have to be decadent when they think of going to work at dawn. "Mom, this handsome millet has a girlfriend!" One by one, some depressed people rubbed the tablet to he Yining''s side. He Yining has been thinking about Jin shaosi''s words. He was in a mess. When he saw the photos on the report, they all turned sour Qu Weiwei whispered something to Li Yunze. Li Yunze looked at her affectionately, just like a couple in love "Hum," leaning one by one to his small head, "fortunately, now there is uncle Si, this handsome millet has a girlfriend!" "One by one..." he Yining looked at one by one. She had to correct her daughter''s mind. "Uncle Si is just uncle Si and won''t be the father of one by one, you know?!" Chapter 1293 One by one fanned the lower eyelashes, "why?" He Yining held one by one on his lap and said with a heavy heart: "one by one, mom knows whether you want a father or a handsome father..." One by one''s eyes began to turn red, and water vapor gradually accumulated in his big eyes. He Yining looked at his daughter painfully and felt very sorry. It''s all for her love and love. Thinking of this, why Ning''s nose is also sour, and a layer of water mist is also dense in his eyes. However, she tried to pull the corners of her mouth. She can be vulnerable in front of anyone, but not in front of one by one. She is one by one''s mother. She must be strong! "Because Uncle Si is never the father of one by one!" He Yining endured, "one by one, I''m sorry, it''s my mother who made one unable to have my father..." One by one''s tears spilled out in an instant. Her small mouth tooted. She was sad because Uncle Si couldn''t be a father. But when seeing why Yining''s red eyes, he suddenly hugged his neck one by one and said with a choking voice: "Mom, don''t say sorry, don''t want dad one by one... Just have a mom one by one, mom, I love you, don''t cry, it''s bad one by one..." "One by one is the best baby. How can it be bad?" He Yining didn''t hold back and wept silently one by one. Not only because of the news photos of Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei, but also because, in this life, she is glad that she gave birth to one by one This is a little angel from heaven. She loves her! "Mom..." One small head rubbed in he Yining''s neck. She experienced loss for the first time. ¡­¡­ "Lin Lao," said Li Yunze and several expert doctors of the general military administration after research, "at present, we plan to take conservative treatment. We should observe it for a while first. If it doesn''t work, we can arrange surgery." When Lin was young, he was a powerful figure in the military region. It is also necessary to see important national conferences every year. Xu was too aggressive when he was young. After he retired, although he was self-cultivation, his old problems gradually emerged with age. "Don''t talk about it to the south," Lin told Li Yunze. "He''s going to prepare for the next large-scale actual combat exercise recently. I don''t want him to be distracted." Li Yunze nodded, "I understand." Paused, "it''s getting late. Old Lin had an early rest, so I''ll go first." "Yes." Li Yunze said hello to several other doctors and then left the military general hospital. Li Yunze went back to his new apartment near the hospital, made himself a cup of coffee, sat on the terrace, looked at the lights, and sighed. "Now it''s time to make yourself sad for spring and Autumn..." Li Yunze murmured, lowered his eyes and shook his head. However, such self ridicule did not resolve the little discomfort in my heart. He always wondered why Ning would turn around and throw himself into the arms of another man since he was willing to sleep with him? Conversely Why did she sleep with another man when she was dating him? Although he didn''t like he Yining before, he still knows her temperament. It''s not her behavior! Li Yunze has a headache. He doesn''t know whether he has been struggling with this problem because of the lingering that night and completely released his thoughts or something. As long as you are free, you can think of all kinds of harmony Before, now! Li Yunze got up, changed his clothes and went back to the hospital. It''s better to go back and study the medicine made by Shi Shaoqin''s dead pervert than to think about it alone. Li Yunze hasn''t left the hospital for several days in succession. One is the research of drugs. The internal disputes between the emperors among the families have become white hot. He must try his best not to let silence become the fetter of Beichen. On the other hand, he found that as long as he was busy, he wouldn''t think nonsense. "Li Shao," a nurse came to the research room, "Chen Shao, in your office." "Yes." Li Yunze answered, put the reagent tube in his hand, washed his hands and disinfected and went to the office. When he saw the bruises and scars on Gu Beichen''s body, he frowned slightly, "what are you singing?" "Had a fight with Zixiao..." "..." Li Yunze twisted his eyebrows and said with a deep sigh as he treated Gu Beichen''s wound. "Can''t you bear it? You have to force yourself to a dead end!" Li Yunze knows that between Gu Beichen and Chu Zixiao, not only the emperor''s shares are involved, but now the biggest obstacle is that there is a simple Mo between his nephew and uncle. Every time he meets the problem of Jian Mo, Gu Beichen, like the crazy lion, absolutely stretches out his claws "Dad put me the emperor''s shares here, and I''ll go back tonight to sign the transfer right... In my hand, you always feel at ease." Gu Beichen didn''t speak. Between brothers, sometimes many things don''t need to be said. After Li Yunze treated the wound, Gu Beichen called Jian Mo and said he had something to do. It was estimated that it would be very late tonight. Jane Mo explained that Gu Beichen wanted to have dinner. She hung up the phone and gave her husband a kiss. The setting sun hit Gu Beichen''s side face through the window and reflected him on half of his face... It was a sweet and comfortable smile. "Laughing so debauchery..." Li Yunze''s tone was a little sour. "Yunze," Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze and thought a little before asking, "have you ever thought about a woman''s and a child''s home?" Li Yunze inadvertently crossed a figure in his mind, but he was suddenly cut off by himself "No!" Two words, obviously very stiff. "Still thinking about why?" Gu Beichen deliberately said so. "Shit! What do you mean ''still thinking''?" Li Yunze immediately jumped up, "Gu Beichen, are you going to have another fight with Chu Zixiao?" "Naive..." Gu Beichen said coldly. Looking at the disdain of his good brother, Li Yunze was like a deflated ball and drooped his shoulders. "People, sometimes they really get used to becoming nature!" Gu Beichen thought and decided to remind Li Yunze a little, "often you think what you hate may not be annoying, like, or like..." Li Yunze didn''t speak because he understood this truth. He thought he hated he Yining, but he found that when he recalled, except for one he Yining, he thought he had nothing else to remember when he was a child. "I''m leaving..." Gu Beichen got up and said and left. Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen''s figure leaving, with complex emotions in his eyes. Does he... Want to be a crowbar?! Chapter 1294 However, Li Yunze didn''t understand what to do with the crowbar. He was overwhelmed by what happened next and didn''t have time to worry about himself. The imperial group is surging, and the struggle between Gu Beichen and Gu mohuai is becoming more and more intense. This is nothing, but one variable is... Chu Zixiao''s holding the emperor''s shares played a vital role. If he supports Gu muhuai, Gu Beichen must lose the control of the imperial group. But if you let him support Gu Beichen, there will be only one Jian mo. But how can Gu Beichen give up Jian Mo? Even if you lose the whole emperor group, I''m afraid Gu Beichen won''t let Jane Mo go With this understanding, it was easy to do, but it happened that silence in Jian Mo began to grow madly with the "help" of Chu Zixiao. Jane Mo''s memory began to decline. Even when she slept, she would forget a lot of things. It''s crazy because it''s unknown. Li Yunze can only speed up his research on silence, so that he soaks in the research room every day, as if he didn''t know the years. But good fortune never comes twice, and bad fortune never comes singly. The disintegration of silence has not been studied yet. When Jane Mo''s situation became worse and worse, grandma Gu was sent to Huakang hospital because of a sudden situation. In the VVIP ward adjacent to one left and one right, there are Jane Mo and grandma Gu, the two most important women for Gu Beichen. Li Yunze has taken the hospital as his home. Because of the research of silence and the situation of Jian Mo and grandma Gu, he has few opportunities to sleep every day. Then I found a chance to squint for a while, and suddenly the emergency call bell rang loudly "Li Shao, madam Gu is in critical condition." The nurses didn''t have time to knock on the door and directly pushed away the door of Li Yunze''s office. Li Yunze suddenly opened his eyes and sat up. The whole person couldn''t react. The nurse ran over and gasped. Seeing that Li Yunze had not responded, she hurriedly said, "Li Shao, old lady Gu is in critical condition and has been sent to the operating room." Li Yunze reacted and got up quickly and ran to the operating room When Li Yunze arrived in the operating room, Gu Beichen also rushed from Jianmo ward. Look at Beichen, who has lost Shangchen''s shoulder...... " Li Yunze and Gu Beichen nodded and took the other two doctors into the operating room. The operation time is not as long as expected. Grandma Gu is 85 years old. "Li Shao..." the doctor looked at the Li Yunze of the main knife one by one. Li Yunze sighed, "Dr. Wang made a death certificate." He said solemnly, turned and took the lead out of the operating room. When Li Yunze saw Gu Beichen''s tense face, he felt unspeakable pain in his heart. He and Beichen grew up together since childhood. Whether it was Gu Beichen, who was sunny at that time, or Gu Beichen, who was indifferent because of changes, for Li Yunze, they were brothers who could change their lives. Naturally, he knew the importance of grandma Gu to Beichen. That''s not only with great feelings, but also Beichen''s greatest support and backing regardless of any decision. "Yunze, how''s grandma?" Gu Beichen''s elder sister Gu CI hurriedly asked. Li Yunze looked around, and finally his sight fell on Gu Beichen. His voice was helpless under sadness, "I''m sorry..." The word "sorry" expresses all he has to say. Helplessness for life, guilt and heartache for brothers When the sob came, Li Yunze''s mood became more and more depressed. He went to Gu Beichen and wanted to comfort him, but found that he didn''t know what words could comfort Gu Beichen at the moment. "Beichen..." "I''m fine!" Gu Beichen immediately interrupted Li Yunze''s words. Gu Beichen took a breath secretly, told Xiao Jing to stay and deal with it, turned and left in a hurry "What''s the matter?" Looking at Beize''s back, he asked. Xiao Jing looked back at Gu Beichen. His face was dignified and said, "Madam Shao is gone!" "Gone?" Li Yunze looked at Xiao Jing, twisted his eyebrows and asked, "what does it mean to be missing? Isn''t he in the ward?" Xiao Jingshen sighed and said nothing, but Li Yunze had guessed it. A Shi Shaoqin is the biggest nemesis and difficult ghost in Beichen''s life. What Li Yunze didn''t expect at the moment is that the news of Jian Mo''s disappearance is... Jian Mo jumped into the Los Angeles River and died! All the news in Los Angeles was covered by Jane Mo''s death. As the president''s wife of emperor group and a famous architectural designer, she had all kinds of news about her every week since she returned from UCL. But no one thought that it would be so heavy to see the news of Jian Mo again He Yining forgot his reaction and stared at his mobile phone for a long time and couldn''t believe it. "How is that possible?!" Why did Ning Nan say something? He once thought it was a big joke played by the media. Although she didn''t have much contact with Jane Mo, whether it was four years ago or four years later, the woman was strong enough to make her admire and envy How can such a person commit suicide?! "Yining, what''s the matter?" Song Tianye sees why he Ning stares at the mobile phone, and his eyes are red. He can''t help worrying and asks. He Yining raised her head and her nose was very sour. She held her lips tightly and shook her head. "It''s all right..." why would you rather suck your nose, red eyes, take the transfer procedures you just handled and leave the surgery in a hurry. Song Tianye frowns and wants to catch up to see the situation. When he leaves the office, he is hurriedly called to a ward by the nurse. Why rather hide in the stairwell, tears can no longer control the ''Susu'' falling down. "Mingming is already happy. Mingming Beichen is so kind to her, and Mingming has a complete home..." he Yining sobbed, "Momo, why?!" Why would you rather suck your nose and take out your mobile phone to call yanmiao. "Scorching..." Yan Miao listened to he Yining''s cry and immediately stopped, "what''s the matter?" "I want to ask about Jane mo..." why would you rather wipe your tears. Yanmiao''s heart also became heavy. "The body has been sent to Huakang mortuary, waiting for the forensic to make the final confirmation report." He Yining''s tears, which he had just controlled, broke the embankment again. "Sometimes there are so many accidents in life that people are always caught off guard at the happiest time." Yan Miao sighed deeply. After thinking about it, she still said, "Yining, old lady Gu has also died." He Yining forgot to cry, "what? Who did you say?" "Gu Beichen''s grandmother, old lady Gu." Yan Yan said. He Yining only felt a "bang" in his head and completely forgot his reaction. Chapter 1295 "Ning Ning, I don''t think you should chase the boy of Li family. You might as well marry my Beichen..." "Grandma Gu, what are you talking about?" "Hahaha..." grandma Gu looked at the coy he Yining and smiled happily. "Little girl, you just have to be a loser in a tree." However, in her youth, why should Ning hold grandma Gu''s arm and hum, which caused grandma Gu a burst of happy laughter. The past is vivid. How warm the past is and how sad it is at this moment. Although there are many struggles in the rich and powerful families, there are also many warm ones. For example, grandma Gu, once a powerful figure, always has her gentle and kind side towards her younger generation. Why would you rather go to work and pick up one by one and then go home. "Mom, what''s the matter with you?" One by one, his voice was a little stuffy. Why rather try to pull the corners of his mouth, even if the smile is very ugly. She shook her head, gently rubbed her little head, and silently went to the kitchen to cook. 11. Although she thought a lot carefully at ordinary times, the little girl saw that her mother was in a bad mood and was very good all night He Yining was looking at a gynecological book, but more than half an hour passed without turning a page. The mobile phone ring suddenly came, startled why Yining. She looked at the mobile phone flashing the screen numbly, and was stunned for a few seconds before she went to get it and picked it up "Ace..." Jin shaosi was about to speak. When he heard why Ning''s hoarse voice, he frowned slightly, "what''s the matter, eh?" "It''s all right..." why should Ning hang his eyes, "what''s the matter?" "There is something wrong with the oil in Brunei. I have to go back for a few days." Jin shaosi said, "Yining, are you really okay?" "Nothing!" He Yining took a breath secretly, "have a safe trip." Jin shaosi was silent. "Yining, will you miss me?" He Yining lowered his eyes again, "ASI..." "Well, I see." Jin shaosi scratched a touch of astringency at the corner of his mouth, "Yining, I won''t force you, but I still want to tell you that I''ve been there and never left." He Yining was silent. Don''t say that she couldn''t respond to major Jin. Even now, she was really not in the mood to think about that. "Rest early, huh?" "Yes." Why should Ning answer, "bye..." She hung up the phone and leaned weakly on the sofa. She just felt her hair swell to pain. ¡­¡­ Mrs. Gu''s funeral was very low-key, but because of her identity, there were not many figures from the military, political and commercial circles. "Whatever decision you make, I support you..." Li Yunze knows that the grievances between Beichen and Shi Shaoqin will be solved sooner or later. Besides, he has taken the blood sample of "Jianmo", and the dead "Jianmo" is not Jianmo at all. In other words, from beginning to end, all this was just a cover up made by Shi Shaoqin, trying to force Beichen to return to Mo palace. Gu Beichen''s vision of Shangli Yunze, the trust and support from his brother, is his biggest driving force at the moment. Li Yunze patted Gu Beichen on the shoulder and was about to leave when he saw the familiar figure in the funeral crowd Li Yunze forgot to move, and a pair of eyes subconsciously followed the man with drooping shoulders and silent sadness. Gu Beichen looked with Li Yunze''s eyes and saw he Yining in the crowd. "Yunze," Gu Beichen''s voice was dull because of fatigue, "don''t wait to lose it before you regret it." Gu Beichen took back his sight, looked at Li Yunze and turned to Xiao Jing Since he has decided to settle his past grievances with Shi Shaoqin, he must make preparations in advance. Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen''s back and walked in the direction of he Yining Yes, no matter what happened in the past or in the future, always let yourself understand that when you can have it, don''t waste it. He Yining sent grandma Gu on her last journey, and his mood could not be recovered from sadness. Her eyes have been crying red and swollen. In her mind, she can always think of grandma Gu. "He Yining..." Li Yunze frowned when he saw why Yining walking silently with his head down, and there was no response when he rubbed his side. Why did Ning stop and look up mechanically in the direction of Li Yunze The black shirt and black suit wrapped Li Yunze, who always looked evil and elegant, in a very solemn and solemn manner. If it wasn''t for the occasion and atmosphere, why Ning would feel that Li Yunze''s abstinence system at the moment makes people want to seduce However, too much sadness makes he Yining completely out of mind. Take back your sight, why don''t you say anything and continue to walk outside Li Yunze frowned slightly and caught up with him. Why Ning''s eyes are somewhat lax and empty looking at the front, "Yunze, is human life really short?" Her voice was so sharp that she thought she would be happy for a long, long time. Li Yunze frowned more tightly. "Life is really fragile..." He Yining suddenly stopped and looked up at the sky slightly. Because he had cried, his sight obviously hurt when he was under the strong light. Father and mother''s departure, Jane Mo''s departure, grandma Gu''s departure Everyone''s departure makes people ignorant of how to face it. Tears, inadvertently fall. Why Ning didn''t even know she was crying. She just looked at the sky as if she could see the clouds as the people she missed. It was not until the man was gently held in a hug that the hot tears seemed to wake him up. He Yining didn''t move and let Li Yunze hold her. The familiar breath rubbed her face and ran in her arms again. Listening to the voice of crying in his arms, the position of Li Yunze''s heart was uncomfortable. He held he Yining''s arm tightly, sighed and said, "if you want to cry, just cry loudly... Anyway, I''ve seen all your shameful looks, and it''s not bad." Xu was Li Yunze''s words. Why would he rather sob uncontrollably? Because he was too sad, his body trembled in Li Yunze''s arms. "Li Yunze, why do you think human life is so fragile?" He Yining asked, "I''m obviously a doctor. I should be used to life and death, but I can''t get used to it for so many years." "Because your feelings are too rich..." Li Yunze answered slowly. He Yining continued to sob, "I''m a perceptual person, I''m just not used to..." "Yes." Li Yunze smiled helplessly, "I know." "What do you know?" He Yining suddenly pushed Li Yunze away, and sobbed at Li Yunze with blurred tears. "You don''t know anything..." "I don''t know what?" Li Yunze asked. He Yining growled without thinking: "you don''t know I''m going to have no confidence when I wait for you..." Chapter 1296 Why did Ning roar, cover his eyes with the back of his hand, and squat down full He Ning squatted on his knees and cried with his eyes. That kind of crying, not unscrupulous, some just endure the helplessness and rout. Li Yunze squatted down. He looked at his body, and the position of his heart was stuffed with something again, which made him feel suffocated "Sobbing..." why would you rather sob? Tears spilled from your fingers and looked desolate. Li Yunze stretched out his arm, took why Ning into his arms again and held it gently. He didn''t speak, just let he Yining vent in his arms I don''t know how long it took. It seemed as if time was going to stop. Li Yunze slowly said, "why Yining, let''s try?" In the soft voice, there was a tension that Li Yunze didn''t know. The uncertainty as if something big was going to happen made him fall into tension. He Yining didn''t respond, but his body was still pumping. Li Yunze was not in a hurry. He knew why Ning was probably thinking about the meaning of what he said. But after waiting for a while, Li Yunze didn''t see any reaction. Li Yunze frowned slightly, "why "Well?" There was a lazy and confused voice, soft and waxy, with jiaochen. Li Yunze frowned a little tighter, slightly opened he Yining''s body, and saw her eyelids drooping. The whole person looked very tired "..." Li Yunze looked at he Yining, and suddenly couldn''t laugh or cry. This is that he finally wants to "confess", but the party is crying and is about to fall asleep?! Li Yunze sighed quietly and clearly that he and he Yining could not be said clearly in a word. Li Yunze got up and wanted to pick it up. Why should he rather return to the villa to have a rest But because he had been squatting for too long, he only felt numb in his legs and feet. Before he got up, he fell back... Homeopathy also pressed on he Yining. He Yining was awakened by such a sudden accident. She looked at the Li Yunze pressing her, and then looked left and right. She found that someone in the distance looked at it, and her face turned red in an instant. "You, you... What are you doing!" Why Ning''s voice became strange, "get up!" "Squatting for too long, legs and feet numb." Li Yunze said. Why Ning''s face became more red. She didn''t know whether Li Yunze meant to fall down because her legs and feet were numb or because her legs and feet were numb, so she couldn''t get up. "You, you lie aside!" He Yining said and wanted to push Li Yunze. Li Yunze smiled. He looked at he Yining''s cramped appearance, and his eyes gradually deepened. I don''t know if he has any thoughts on he Yining recently. I always think he missed a lot of he Yining''s good before. Li Yunze did not continue to press on he Yining, but turned over and lay aside. He Yining wanted to get up because of embarrassment, but Li Yunze grabbed him, "aren''t you tired? Lie down for a while..." Why Ning''s action stopped abruptly. She looked at Li Yunze strangely, thought for a while, and then lay back slowly. Li Yunze relaxed when he Yining lay down, grabbed her hand, looked at the blue sky and sighed gently. Why Ning Zhe''s lips, slightly tilted his head and secretly looked at Li Yunze. She used to like to follow Li Yunze, so she thought he was particularly good-looking at him from a close distance. After all these years, I can''t think of it! In the distance, people who left one after another looked at them and wondered what they were doing? But those who can come here for funeral today have a strong relationship with the family. Some people are curious, but no one will do anything After lying down for a while, he Yining''s eyes were so astringent and painful that he simply closed his eyes. "Li Yunze, what do you want?" He Yining asked in a hoarse voice after crying. Li Yunze didn''t answer immediately, but spoke slowly: "life is too fragile. Most of the time, it''s because we don''t know how to cherish it when we have it, so when we miss it, we will find that the original time we spent together is too short. It''s too short for people to feel how beautiful it is." Why rather frowned and looked at Li Yunze, feeling strange. Such "sour" words are not quite like what Li Yunze would say. Li Yunze also turned his head and looked at he Yining. The two eyes were opposite, because they were so close that they could even see their own shadow from each other''s pupils. Why did Ning forget the reaction? If this is a "affectionate" look at each other, grandma Gu, please forgive me for my reverie about Li Yunze here. "He Yining..." Li Yunze shouted. "Well?" Why do you prefer the subconscious light? Eh, your eyes are facing the fierce cloud, but you can''t move it. "We..." Li Yunze''s words just opened. Suddenly why Yining''s mobile phone rang. The next words were interrupted by why Yining''s sudden recovery and hurried to get his mobile phone. Li Yunze sighed secretly, and suddenly some could understand why he Ning was before. For the first time, he said why he would rather fall asleep. For the second time, when he was interrupted, he felt overwhelmed Think about why he Yining confessed to him so many times before and was ignored every time. What kind of mood is that? Thinking, Li Yunze looked at he Yining, just in line with her vision as a thief. He Yining went to see Li Yunze only reflexively. She didn''t expect that Li Yunze was also looking good. She was so scared that she quickly turned over and climbed up with her mobile phone already in the call Li Yunze frowned slightly, sat up, looked at he Yining''s action with doubt and examination. He Yining looked at Li Yunze again, stopped at a small flower bed not far away, looked back nervously, saw that Li Yunze didn''t follow, raised his mobile phone and asked, "what''s the matter?" "Yining, what are you doing?" Fang Zihan walked out of an ice cream shop holding one by one. "I''m still here. Li Yunze was just around!" He Yining whispered, "what''s the matter?" "Oh, wait until Yanyan gets off work and says to eat hot pot together. Why don''t you come when you''re finished?" Fang Zihan said, "when people leave, they still have to live." He Yining knew that yanmiao and Fang Zihan knew that she was in a bad mood these two days, so they didn''t want her to go home one by one after attending the funeral today. "Well, good!" Why should Ning answer, "where is it? I''ll go directly..." "Your favorite one, me and one by one are ready to go." "Well, I''m ready to go too..." He Yining said something and hung up. As soon as she turned around, Li Yunze didn''t know when to stand behind her. After she screamed in horror, she stepped back When his legs suddenly hit the flower bed, he listened to why he Ning''s'' ah '', and he fell back when he lost his support Chapter 1297 Li Yunze frowned, stepped forward, grabbed why Ning''s waving hand and went back to the area He Yining bumped into Li Yunze''s arms. His nose hurt a little because of inertia. Why don''t you listen to the whole person. "Just like being a thief," Li Yunze looked at him and hurriedly tried to push him away. "He Yining, what secret are you so afraid of me discovering?" "What secret?" Why did nington''s whole body cells stammer nervously and say, "I, what secret do I have that I''m afraid you''ll find out?!" Li Yunze sneered, "then ask yourself." "No... no!" He Yining swallowed it secretly, tried to pull out a smile from the corners of his mouth and said, "how can it be?!" Li Yunze frowned slightly and wondered why he would rather be like that just now. Was it because the phone was called by Jin shaosi or something else?! However, it doesn''t look like it''s the man who called "Well, i... I have something else to do. I have to go!" He Yining said, hurriedly turned around and wanted to leave, for fear that he would not hold and be seen through by Li Yunze. But the talent turned around and was caught by Li Yunze. "Dry, what?!" Why would you rather wring your eyebrows. Li Yunze looked at he Yining calmly. Thanks to he Yining pestering him before, he still knew her a little. He dares to promise that he Yining must be afraid of what he finds now?! "Where are you going? I''ll see you off!" Li Yunze said. "I can take a taxi. I don''t need to bother you." Why would you rather refuse in a hurry. Li Yunze smiled, "I''m afraid you can''t get a taxi in this place!" "..." why did Ning twitch at the corner of his mouth, "Bei, Beichen just arranged for a driver to take me back." "It''s all troublesome people. You''d better trouble me. It''s not once or twice anyway..." With that, Li Yunze took he Yining to the parking lot. Why rather secretly grinned and wondered what nerve Li Yunze had today?! "Really don''t bother..." he Yining refused with a face. "OK, it''s not a trouble." Li Yunze opened his mouth indifferently and looked at why Ning''s unhappiness on his face. "..." he Yining suddenly drooped his shoulders. She looked at Li Yunze with some resentment and thought that she would let him put it anywhere and go to the hot pot shop again. Li Yunze drove. He Yining felt uneasy around him for the first time. After arriving in the urban area, he Yining said a place near the shopping mall. There is a subway station over there. It will be more convenient to go to the hot pot shop. When Li Yunze was waiting for the red light, he Yining was examined with piercing eyes. Why Ning looked at him with a guilty heart, hurriedly pretended not to see the side face, looked out of the car, and covered up his embarrassment and said, "Oh, that child is so cute..." Li Yunze looked at it cooperatively, and saw a little girl with her little hand dragging her little skirt around in front of her mother. Then she looked up and asked what to please. Her smile was full of childlike innocence. "Do you like children?!" Li Yunze asked and looked at why he Ning. "Of course I like..." when he Yining said about children, her face suddenly overflowed with a light that belongs only to women and mothers, "ha ha..." she realized something and looked at Li Yunze with a dry smile. "There is no woman who doesn''t like children, ha ha!" Why do you rather grin secretly? Why don''t you mention children?! Li Yunze looked at he Yining with a slight depth of vision. She always felt that she was too wrong today, and even wrote ''I''m lying to you'' all over her body. "Didi, Didi -" The sound of the horn came from behind. Li Yunze looked at the signal light and started the car "Just pull over and I''ll get off here." He Yining looked at the place where he wanted to get off and said. Li Yunze didn''t stop, but just found a parking space. "Thank you..." why Ning loosened his seat belt and said unconsciously, "I''ll invite you to dinner another day!" People in a hurry have got off the bus. However, after only a few steps, the wrist was suddenly caught. He Yining was pulled back by inertia. She saw it was Li Yunze with a tangled face. Just wanted to ask ''why'', she listened to Li Yunze slowly say: "another day? It''s better today. It''s time for dinner anyway." "..." why did Ning twitch at the corner of his mouth, "but I have something to do!" "Well, I can accompany you..." "I have an appointment. Isn''t that good for you?" "I''ll see who you''ve made an appointment with. If it''s a woman, I''ll stay with you. If it''s a man, I''ll avoid it!" "Ah?!" He Yining stared in surprise. Why doesn''t she know that Li Yunze is such a scoundrel... Even without eyes?! Looking at Yunze more and more, she didn''t know what he wanted to do. No matter who he looked at, he must be more and more guilty. But this doesn''t let him know. It has nothing to do with other men! At the right time, he Yining''s mobile phone rang. He Yining wanted to break away from Li Yunze, but he didn''t let go. The passers-by had already looked over, and their eyes were full of the visual sense of "I understand, it''s a quarrel between lovers at first sight". Why Ning looked around in embarrassment, stared at Li Yunze and took out his mobile phone Seeing that it was Fang Zihan, he Yining first glanced at Li Yunze like a thief, then picked it up and quickly said, "I''m about to..." "Mom, when are you..." "Hey, what are you doing?!" Why did Ning Cai speak? There were voices on the phone one by one. At the same time, Li Yunze had already grabbed her mobile phone. She wanted to put her mobile phone to her ear without looking away Why Ning was scared to death. When Li Yunze was about to put the mobile phone in her ear, she came forward and grabbed it. Li Yunze didn''t expect why he would rather be like this. For a moment, he didn''t notice that she "succeeded". Just listen to the sound of "bang Dang", the mobile phone falls to the ground and blooms again He Yining was so angry that he threw away Li Yunze and squatted down to pick it up. He Yining said he was "really stubborn" while his mobile phone was still on the phone. When she picked it up and put it in her ear, she heard Fang Zihan ''hello''. "Yining, what happened?" Fang Zihan asked anxiously, "one by one, there is a sound of heavy objects falling!" "On the road, there were too many people, and the mobile phone fell to the ground..." he Yining raised his eyes and looked at her Li Yunze all the time, "wait for the past." "OK, be careful on your way." "Yes." Why should I rather hang up the phone and get up, "Li Yunze, I really have something to do." "But I have something to say." Li Yunze never left his sight. He Yining was very uncomfortable with her resistance to him. "Then look back," he Yining looked at the cell phone that wanted to die again. He was afraid that Li Yunze would continue to follow, so he could only say, "I''m going on a blind date now, so don''t follow me, can you?!" Chapter 1298 He Yining said that the main purpose of "blind date" is to make Li Yunze stop following her. After all, this is a big event! But who knows, after saying that, Li Yunze not only didn''t let go of her meaning, but caught her more tightly. He Yining looked distressed. "Li Yunze, I''m not young anymore. Look, it''s really bad for you to delay me like this... Isn''t it?" With that, she twisted her arm, but she couldn''t pull it out. "Li Yunze, what are you doing?" He Yining looked at Li Yunze somewhat discouraged. Li Yunze looked at he Yining and saw that she still looked at him with a resistant face. That look was that she didn''t want him to follow. Is it really a blind date?! But why Where''s Jin shaosi?! She has an affair with Jin shaosi, and Qu Weiwei also said that Jin shaosi used to like he Yining Li Yunze looked at he Yining''s line of sight deeper and deeper. Thinking of the news about buying baby products, he thought secretly Does Jin shaosi have a hidden marriage object, but it has nothing to do with her?! Thinking like this, Li Yunze looked at he Yining''s line of sight more and more complex, and the complexity was mixed with some heartache. He didn''t find it himself. Naturally, he Yining didn''t see it. The two faced each other like this on the road, and passers-by glanced curiously. He Yining was a little uncomfortable and could only say with a soft attitude: "Li Yunze, can you let go... You''re really not good like this?!" Li Yunze didn''t speak, but just pulled he Yining forward "Hey, hey..." he Yining was pulled so that he didn''t turn around for a while and stumbled, "where are you taking me?" "Anyway, it''s a blind date," Li Yunze said without looking back, and his voice couldn''t hear too many emotions. "You have a ready-made one in front of you." "Ah?!" He Yining looked around some wood, "where?" "Me!" Li Yunze glanced back. "..." he Yining was completely stunned. She stared at Li Yunze''s back, forgot her reaction and walked forward with him. Until I sat down in a nearby theme hot pot shop, why Ning was stunned. "Li Yunze, what did you just say?" He Yining asked. "Aren''t you going to have a blind date," Li Yunze said while drawing the order list handed over by the waiter. "It''s all blind dates anyway. I''m single now. I can have a blind date!" "Are you crazy?" Why can Ning Zui be surprised to put a quail egg in it. The waiter on one side held back his smile to see why he Ning, and his sight fell on Li Yunze again. The combination of handsome men and beautiful women looks so eye-catching even if they eat hot pot After a while, Li Yunze finished drawing the menu, handed it to the waiter and said, "I want a spicy pot, a little spicy." "OK." The waiter answered and turned away. He Yining was still immersed in the matter that Li Yunze said he would date her, and the whole person was thrown into confusion. Li Yunze looked at he Yining and asked, "what''s the matter?" "Li Yunze, are you stimulated today?" He Yining asked with a curved face. "Yes!" Li Yunze answered casually. "Sure enough..." he Yining suddenly said, "although doctors don''t cure themselves, if you are ill, you really need to see it." "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth, "he Yining, I think you are stupid. You need to see a doctor... I don''t mind seeing you in person." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Why would you rather curl your lips than take Li Yunze''s "blind date" seriously. "I''m going on a blind date. You have to disturb me. Can''t you really see me and other men?!" Why would you rather curl your lips? "Li Yunze, don''t you think you''re too unkind?" "It''s ok..." Li Yunze put a set of tableware in front of he Yining. "Anyway, I''m single, blind date is also a meal, and we''re not bad together!" "Your joke is not funny at all." He Yining muttered dully and thought about Li Yunze. It seemed that she didn''t intend to let her go. She had to find a chance to tell Zihan that she might not be able to pass. Li Yunze''s actions stopped, "he Yining, I''m not kidding." "Well?" Li Ning looked at He Yun in doubt. Li Yunze sighed quietly. He used to say that Beichen would not die if he didn''t do it. This is not true. It''s reported in this world "I said, I''m not kidding you!" "..." he Yining was shocked by Li Yunze again, "you, you... What did you say?" Li Yunze looked at he Yining seriously. "He Yining, I''m single. I guess since you want to date, you should also be single..." after a pause, his voice was slightly heavy and said slowly, "why don''t we try?!" He Yining seemed to have been touched by someone and stayed there motionless. Even his eyelashes looked at Li Yunze without blinking. The waiter served the dishes and put them on the pot. Soon, the smell was filled with fragrance. The waiter looked at the two people who looked at each other. The man envied Li Yunze for finding a beautiful girlfriend. The woman envied why she would rather find a male god with a face of abstinence "Confessed!" A waiter whispered to the person on the side, "it''s the first time I saw a man bring a woman to the hot pot shop to confess. It''s so grounded!" Li Yunze smiled and turned to look at the waiter who whispered, "she likes hot pot." The waiter knew that his words had been heard, and immediately his face turned red. With some embarrassed apology, he nodded and bowed down and hurried away Why rather quietly looking at Li Yunze, "why?" Gently three words, mixed with too many emotions. Not only is Li Yunze suddenly today, but also he is afraid that all this is a dream. "If..." why Ning drooped her eyes. "If it''s because of the South China Sea that night, I think..." she smiled at the corner of her mouth, "I think we are adults, and there''s no need to force us to be together because of physical needs." He Yining said that his fingers under the table had been twisted red. In the face of Li Yunze''s "seeking communication", he Yining is not as happy as he imagined, but shows a sense of loss. "He Yining, do you think I am a person who wants to be together because I have sex with a woman?" Li Yunze asked, "if so, shouldn''t you have knocked me down long ago?" He Yining looked at Li Yunze and whispered in a coy voice, "I''ve rushed and taken medicine..." "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth. In the past, he was bound to be furious in the face of such a situation, but at this moment, he inexplicably felt that he Yining was very cute. Chapter 1299 Li Yunze smiled and scalded the dishes into the pot, "not because of that night! I just want to try to be with you..." He Yining looked up at Li Yunze again. There was no joke on his face, but he suddenly made her a little strange. Is it Who is she?! You have to be abused to feel normal He Yining shivered secretly and felt that he was also a wonderful flower. Why not speak? Li Yunze found out again that he knew what she was struggling with at the moment Take a look at the dishes you ordered. It''s basically why you prefer to eat them. Li Yunze sighed quietly. No matter what role he Yining played in his life in the past, at the moment, he had to admit that she occupied a lot of him inadvertently. Her thoughts, her behavior, even her preferences... It seems that he knows very well. Such clarity is inadvertently reflected without any deliberate behavior. "Yining," Li Yunze put the dish on the he Yining plate, "in fact, I said just before I came. If we can try... You just didn''t hear it." He Yining frowned and recalled the events at that time. It seemed that she was too sad. Indeed, she didn''t know what Li Yunze said or didn''t say. "I still want to know..." why Ning zhe asked at the corner of his mouth, "why?" A dream from small to large, "realized" is a little too sudden, so why rather fall into entanglement. "I thought we might be appropriate." Li Yunze didn''t hide why Yining. "Since you came back this time, every time I contacted you, I always feel used to you. Maybe that habit is what you said, because you don''t care, I care..." paused, "but who knows, it''s not a good start?!" He Yining ate silently. Li Yunze was hot. She didn''t find anything wrong when she ate. "What if... It doesn''t fit later?" He Yining asked in a soft voice. "Who knows what will happen in the future?" Li Yunze poured a cup of freshly squeezed juice for he Yining. "If you eat hot pot, don''t drink cold drinks. It''s bad for your health." "Oh..." he Yining answered skillfully. Li Yunze smiled. "Now, I want to ask... If you don''t know, it may still be inappropriate in the end. Yining, would you like to try?" From "he Yining" to "Yining", although only one surname has been removed, the feeling is completely different. He Yining chewed the food in his mouth mechanically, and his eyelashes gently fanned... His eyes looked up at Li Yunze. "Maybe..." he Yining said subconsciously, "you can try!" Li Yunze was not surprised by this answer. Perhaps over the years, why Ning''s feelings for him have been deep into the bone marrow, so that it gave him natural self-confidence. "Well, then we''ll be sure of the relationship." Li Yunze said, continuing to give why Ning hot dishes. ¡­¡­ When yanmiao entered the box, he saw Fang Zihan and his counterparts ordering with a list. "Where''s Yining?" Yan Miao sat down, "haven''t you arrived yet?" "It''s fast, but it doesn''t seem so fast..." Fang Zihan said, glancing at yanmiao and exchanging lines of sight. He Yining is sure to meet Li Yunze when he goes to attend grandma Gu''s funeral today Fang Zihan''s glance obviously had some deep meaning. Yanmiao looked at one by one, and after turning off the topic, he sent a text message to he Yining: Yining, what''s the situation? He Yining fell into the crazy sweetness of "trying" with Li Yunze, and didn''t hear the voice of the text message at all. Yan Miao waited for a while. Seeing that he Yining didn''t reply, he thought it must be inconvenient. She looked at one by one and said, "Mom will be late, or she may not be able to come to dinner. Why don''t we eat first?" "Ah?!" One by one drooped his small shoulders, but in a flash, he said attentively, "mom is probably tripped by something, so let''s wait while eating!" Fang Zihan spoiled his head, looked at yanmiao, and called the waiter to serve. ¡­¡­ If a person is in a good mood, his appetite is definitely good. Why would you rather support your stomach? When you can''t eat it, you suddenly find that all the dishes she eats today are her favorite. She looked at Li Yunze suspiciously. Originally, she wanted to ask why when he knew what she liked to eat, his words came to his mouth and swallowed them back. Just started to try. She still didn''t think Li Yunze cared about her and knew what she liked. After all, it was not once or twice that she had to accompany Li Yunze to eat hot pot. He was so smart and had a good memory that it was not difficult to remember the dishes she ordered every time. "Do I want to..." he Yining looked at Li Yunze and asked, "... Go to eat something else with you?" "No, I''m full." Li Yunze said, "when two people get along, their preferences always need to be integrated." "But..." why did Ning hesitate. She likes spicy hot and hot pot. These men don''t like it very much. She likes spicy food. Li Yunze doesn''t avoid spicy food, but it''s definitely not to the extent she likes. Li Yunze likes red wine, she likes red wine Alas! It turns out that they have a lot of things that don''t match. "What''s the matter?" Li Yunze looked at he Yining''s transformed nerves and asked in a slightly suspicious voice. Why rather pull the corners of his mouth and shake his head, "it''s all right, just... I''m too full." "Well, I''ll walk with you later and eat!" Li Yunze said calmly. "..." why did Ning twitch at the corners of his mouth. Although she dreamed of such a day, having dinner together and then taking a walk after dinner... Everything came so fast that she was overwhelmed by tornadoes! Thinking of this, why Ning suddenly remembered that he was eating hot pot here, and Fang Zihan, yanmiao and one by one were still waiting for her at other homes "Well, I''ll go to the bathroom." He Yining said and got up quickly, looking a little nervous unconsciously. Li Yunze frowned slightly and still felt why he would rather hide something from him. He Yining looked at an unread text message above. After opening it, he hurried to poke it on the cracked screen and replied with difficulty: Li Yunze and I are together and can''t get through it. Later, let Zihan take it home one by one. I''ll pick it up when I''m finished. Yan Miao replied quickly: what''s the situation? Why did Ning smile at the corners of his mouth? It was a happy and forgetful mood: Yan Yan, Li Yunze said let''s try! "What?!" Yan Miao looked at the text message and directly stared at it and cried out. Fang Zihan and one by one looked curiously, "Yan Yan, what''s the matter?" Chapter 1300 Yanmiao originally wanted to open his mouth and said, ''Li Yunze wants to try with Yining'', but when his eyes crossed one by one, he changed his words and said: "there is a difficult patient in the hospital who says he wants to give it to me..." Fang Zihan slightly twisted his eyebrows and looked at yanmiao. Obviously, there was doubt in his eyes. One by one, he slapped his eyelashes and said with a distressed soft waxy face: "aunt Yanyan is so pathetic. We have to assign jobs after work." The little girl leaned down and thought, "but the sick person is also very poor. Aunt Yanyan, come on!" Yanmiao twitched at the corners of his mouth, nodded at the corners of his mouth, looked at his mobile phone again absently, and sent a text message to he Yining: is it convenient to call? I''ll call you in two minutes. Yining: temporarily convenient. "Well, I''ll go to the bathroom." After yanmiao said something to Fang Zihan, he took his mobile phone and went outside the box. When yanmiao came to the end of the corridor, he dialed he Yining. After a while, he Yining picked it up and listened to her depressed say: "my mobile phone broke the screen. It''s expensive to answer the phone." "What''s going on?" Yan Miao asked. "That son Han called and was talking one by one. Li Yunze robbed him. I was scared to death, so I went to rob..." why should Ning pie his mouth, "and then... It was a tragedy." Yan Miao helped his forehead, "OK, put aside your mobile phone first. I want to know now. What''s the matter with Li Yunze?" When yanmiao just said this, the door of a box behind her was opened, but no one came out. "I don''t know what psychosis Li Yunze made today. Anyway, he followed me all the time. Then I lied to him that I wanted a blind date. He dragged me to dinner with him. What else did he say? We can have a blind date and try..." He Yining said, paying attention to the people around him for fear that Li Yunze would suddenly appear behind him. "Are you happy?" Yan Miao asked. Why Ning drooped his eyes and obviously had a blush on his face, "scorching, I suddenly feel happy like a tornado, blowing up all at once..." "Not calm!" Yan Miao turned his eyes, "Li Yunze said to try with you, you don''t know the southeast and northwest." He Yining grinned, bit his lower lip and said, "but he said he wanted to try with me!" "Yes, try..." yanmiao sighed with complex emotion. "Anyway, you''re like this. It''s impossible not to try." "Hey, hey..." he Yining smiled and shook his body like a little fool. Yan Miao can know what he Yining looks like now without looking. "All right, have a good try with your dream lover..." yanmiao said intimately, "I and Zihan will take one by one to clip the dolls after eating, and then call me when you''re finished." "Well, good!" He Yining said gratefully, "Yan Yan, you and Zihan must be the angels sent to me by heaven." "Even if your angel''s eyes are burning..." even if your angel''s eyes turn over... " He Yining grinned again. Listening to why Ning magic''s laughter, yanmiao sighed secretly. I hope Li Yunze took the initiative to put forward this time. This try can last a long time After hanging up the phone, yanmiao turned and walked towards the box. When she passed the first box, she saw the door closed before her figure crossed the door. Yan Miao glanced over and just saw the gap that the door closed at last. He looked inertia and left without stopping "Weiwei, didn''t you go to the bathroom?" Mao Ting asked curiously, "Why are you standing at the door and not going?" Qu Weiwei turned her head, smiled in her mouth, and said without any emotional leakage: "just thought of a design, stunned, go now." Then she turned back and opened the door again. It looked normal, but she looked carefully and just saw yanmiao push open a box and go in. Qu Weiwei went to the bathroom, and her mind was always filled with just yanmiao''s words. Although she didn''t hear very clearly, she heard two important messages. Li Yunze wants to have a try with he Yining, and who is that one?! Qu Weiwei washed her hands and looked at herself in the mirror Bright and beautiful, temperament makes it... No matter how you look at it, it is thousands of times better than he Yining. Li Yunze clearly hates he Yining. Why do you want to try with her now? Just because she''s down now? Before, Li Yunze didn''t like he Yining and liked to play with her. Was it because she was the servant''s daughter? What is the standard of Li Yunze? Because I am a rich family, I only like to be with people who are "grounded" Because she has become a famous jewelry designer and can buy a house in Yudu apartment, he will break up with her and be with he Yining, who has nothing? Qu Weiwei''s vision gradually became sinister, and the water touched her hands, cooling her heart. ¡­¡­ Seeing he Yining coming back, Li Yunze asked her if she wanted to continue eating. Looking at the way she said she would support, her eyes became soft. After calling the waiter to check out, Li Yunze left the hot pot shop with he Yining. Just a few steps after they left the hot pot shop, suddenly someone quietly raised their camera and took pictures of them Li Yunze looked over there with a slight frown and saw that the man quickly disappeared in the crowd. "What''s the matter?" He Yining looked around with some hindsight. "Nothing." Li Yunze took back his sight and went to the parking space with he Yining. He opened the door and signaled why he would rather get on the bus. He closed the door and bypassed the body. At the same time, a text message had been sent out Chen Yu had just entered the blues when she received the text message. "Yu Shao, Chen Shao is waiting for you inside." "Yes." Chen Ying answered and looked at Li Yunze''s text message while walking to Gu Beichen''s exclusive private area. Yunze: I don''t want to see any media report on me tomorrow. You can handle it. Chen Yu sighed and replied with a "good" and said, "at least I''m also a brother-in-law. It''s rude to use it like this." After receiving the mobile phone, Chen Yu raised his eyes and saw Gu Beichen coming up from the wine cellar with a bottle of wine in his hand. He has a headache. This bottle of wine is "not good to drink"! "Sit down." Chen Yu sat down and looked at Gu Beichen''s calm and handsome face, which made people unable to see any emotion, and sighed quietly. After grandma Gu''s funeral, Jane Mo died again. Now he has to support everything. It''s sad to see. Gu Beichen opened the wine and took it to wake up. He poured two cups of wine with the wine he had woken up before. "What am I looking for you for? You should know..." Chapter 1301 Chen Yu took the glass. "I can''t say clearly, can I?" Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and smiled, but there was no temperature. "Chen Yu, I just want to use your Chen family''s channels." "You have such good resources as dragon owl. I''m actually very strange. Why do you want to find me?" Chen Yu was puzzled. Gu Beichen looked sideways. The blurred light shrouded around him, which was always a bit confusing. Now he can think of bringing Mo''er to Blues for the first time, and she can also think of "fighting wits and courage" with him here for an architectural design book Gu Beichen''s thin lips gradually overflow with a smile. That smile is too illusory. Chen Yu is a little heavy. He hasn''t seen Gu Beichen like this. Gu Beichen, whom he knew, never fell into such illusory thoughts. "He always wants to go back to the dragon''s house, you and I know." Gu Beichen took back his sight, raised his hand and sipped the red wine, making the bitter taste buds more bitter, "so, you''re right." "Shit!" Chen Yu spit and scolded, "I''m getting rid of the relationship with the Chen family." Gu Beichen looked at Chen Yu quietly and didn''t speak. Chen Yu drank the red wine powerlessly, "I don''t know how you know about the Chen family and the Li family..." Gu Beichen drooped his eyes, "inadvertently." Three words, said casually, but obviously, Gu Beichen crossed a touch of emotion at the bottom of his eyes. Because Gu Beichen is holding on to the "handle" of the relationship that clearly shouldn''t be borne by him, and everyone knows it, he will not continue to shirk it. Besides, he also wants to know if Jane Mo is really not dead! Even if Gu Beichen is hit so hard, it is reasonable to say that he should not be an unreal person who is unwilling to accept reality ¡­¡­ He Yining and Li Yunze strolled in the park, listening to the sound of insects at night with the help of less bright street lights... Just like many couples, they felt the little romance under the tranquility. He Yining looked at Li Yunze beside her uncontrollably. She always had a feeling that happiness was stolen. Even, she naively felt that all this was the illusion created by Cinderella''s pumpkin car, which would disappear and return to its original shape at midnight. Li Yunze suddenly stopped He Yining continued to move forward because he fell into his own thoughts. Li Yunze frowned slightly, looked at he Yining, and suddenly dropped his eyes and smiled. He Yining reacted and suddenly stopped. Looking back, he just saw Li Yunze smiling. He realized his behavior and blushed. "You, why did you stop?" He Yining said coyly in order to cover up his embarrassment. Li Yunze came forward with a smile, "just see if you are absorbed in what you think..." Why did he make complaints about Li Yunze''s "bad taste" and he could not speak up. Just when he Yining was dissatisfied, Li Yunze suddenly grasped he Yining''s hand. When she was surprised and didn''t know how to respond, people had pulled her to go on The warm temperature came from the palm. Why Ning''s face was getting redder and redder, and his mouth was smiling. In that way, she was a little woman in love, and her whole body was shining. Li Yunze copied his pocket with one hand and he Yining walked forward with the other hand He hasn''t tried this feeling before, so... It''s not bad. "I heard you transferred?" Li Yunze asked. "En..." why did Ning respond with a sweet smile, "how do you know?!" "President Ma went to Huakang yesterday and mentioned it by the way." Li Yunze said, "surgery is well treated. Why did you suddenly transfer to another department?" "Want to change..." why Ning drooped his eyes and didn''t say the real reason. Li Yunze took a look at he Yining. "It''s a pity that you are capable of surgery." "You said I was a surgical killer before... I''m capable now!" Why rather unconsciously muttered. In fact, she thought it was in her heart, but who knows, it was said When he found it, he saw Li Yunze slowly stop and look at her with a murderous look. "Ha ha..." he Yining was embarrassed. "Well, I didn''t say anything!" "Yes." Li Yunze said calmly, "I used to think you were annoying around, but now I feel pretty good..." "...." he Yining choked again by Li Yunze''s words. In the face of Li Yunze, he Yining''s brain response is not enough except for flower mania. After a while, why Ning fought back and asked, "Li Yunze, can I understand that you didn''t like me before, so I''m not good at anything? Now you think I''m still good at everything, so you think I can see everything?" Li Yunze smiled and didn''t answer. Why would you rather curl your lips? Although you know this truth in your heart, you are still a little lost. ¡­¡­ Qu Weiwei left after paying the bill. She drove all the way to Yudu apartment I have lived here for a while, but I haven''t met Li Yunze once. She hasn''t seen him since the last studio opening Qu Weiwei gently grasped the steering wheel and drew a sneer at the bottom of her eyes. He Yining, even after watching the report on the opening of Li Yunze''s studio and me, you can still be humble and not afraid of being a junior and try Li Yunze Qu Weiwei clutched the steering wheel more and more tightly, and her face with exquisite makeup became ferocious because of jealousy from her heart. "Squeak -" "Bang!" The sudden sound made Qu Weiwei''s eyes widened. Her body suddenly bumped forward uncontrollably. Subconsciously, she hurriedly stepped on the brake to keep the car from getting out of control at the last minute. Qu Weiwei looked at the car in front of her and was stunned. She quickly opened the double flash and got out of the car. At the right time, the driver in front also got off the car. Qu Weiwei, who couldn''t even care about coming, hurried to open the door in the back seat with a worried face. "Hello, is anyone hurt..." Qu Weiwei swallowed involuntarily. The man first asked about the people inside, then came out in a rage and shouted, "how do you drive? My wife is going to have a baby, and you''re tossing around like this. If something happens, I won''t let you go..." Qu Weiwei heard that she was a pregnant woman and her face was a little pale with fear. "Sorry, sorry, I''ll go to the hospital now..." she said, and suddenly something crossed her mind, "Huakang is nearby. I''ll go with you." The man didn''t have time to talk too much with Qu Weiwei. He just looked at her car number and got on the car. Fortunately, it was just a collision, and neither car affected the driving. After Qu Weiwei got into the car, she hung up her Bluetooth headset, looked at the car that had started in front of her, and called Li Yunze Chapter 1302 "Yunze, what should I do..." As soon as Li Yunze answered the phone, Qu Weiwei came with a trace of crying voice, obviously losing her sense of propriety. He Yining pointed Li Yunze to a water vendor in front of her and motioned her to buy water first. Li Yunze nodded with a smile, looked at why he would rather leave, and asked calmly, "what''s the matter?" "I just went home and accidentally hit the car. There was a pregnant woman in the other party''s car who was going to give birth..." Qu Weiwei said, and the crying cavity in her voice became heavier. "Are you in the hospital?" "I''m not here..." Li Yunze frowned slightly. "What about that?!" Qu Weiwei''s voice showed the fear of hesitation. "You go to the hospital first and I''ll call the obstetrics and gynecology department." Li Yunze said calmly, completely unaware of the potential meaning of Qu Weiwei''s call, and just thought she needed a good doctor. "OK." Qu Weiwei answered, "that..." she seemed to lose her backbone and bit her lower lip. Her voice begged, but she didn''t dare to show it too much. "Can''t you get through?" Li Yunze frowned and looked at he Yining who went to the front stall to buy water. "I have something to do at the moment. You go first and wait." Qu Weiwei sobbed and hung up the phone. Just cut off the phone, Qu Weiwei''s eyes overflowed with a crazy light of resentment, which almost drowned her reason. If Yan Miao had no problem at that time, it means that Li Yunze and he Yining are together now Li Yunze chose not to come because he Yining was with him! Something happened to her before. She can always call Li Yunze over But now Qu Weiwei clenched the steering wheel again and followed the car in front of her. After arriving at Huakang, there were obstetricians and gynecologists waiting at the night clinic. Because of the speed and professionalism, the pregnant woman did not accidentally give birth to a lovely fat boy after being sent to the hospital. Qu Weiwei didn''t leave and accompanied her all the way. Seeing Qu Weiwei running before and after, the man also arranged a doctor in advance, and his anger gradually dissipated. "My wife and son are very good, although there was a little friction before, but now they are safe and all right..." the man was obviously very happy because he was pregnant with his son. "It''s very late. Go back first!" "I''ll ask the garage to drive your car back..." "I don''t have to go back. I don''t have to go back." Qu Weiwei listened and didn''t tangle about it. She just left after a few polite words. It''s already more than eleven in the evening. Qu Weiwei stood in the yard of Huakang, looked around a very quiet place, and gradually clenched her hands. It has been more than two hours since she entered the hospital. In addition to arranging a doctor, Li Yunze not only didn''t come, but didn''t even ask After biting her teeth, Qu Weiwei looked back at the direction of the inpatient department, then took back her sight and went to the parking place ¡­¡­ Li Yunze had forgotten Qu Weiwei''s affairs at the moment. Before and he Yining together, he really didn''t think about Qu Weiwei''s purpose, and didn''t put his mind on her at all. Or, from before to now, whether Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei are together or not, he hasn''t taken it seriously. Even though she didn''t break up, Qu Weiwei couldn''t come back. Li Yunze never thought about anything more. Soon after Qu Weiwei called, the military general hospital called him Lin Lao''s body changed. Li Yunze went to the general manager of the army with he Yining. In the small conference room, he Yining has been sitting in a corner that does not affect everyone''s discussion. He listened with interest as Li Yunze and several doctors of general manager Jun further discussed the treatment plan for Lin Lao. "I''m afraid we''ll have to have surgery at last..." Li Yunze said. "However, at present, I suggest conservative treatment." Several experts and doctors of the general army nodded, but their faces were dignified one by one. "Originally, I wanted to let Mr. Lin turn to Huakang..." a doctor with the rank of 24 cents said with a deep sigh. "But Mr. Lin said that it was the old revolution and there was no special." The total medical capital of the army is good, but there is still a gap compared with Huakang, the country''s top three special hospital. What''s more, Lin''s operation, looking at the whole country, Li Yunze must be the most able to afford the main knife. "Old Lin is just like this. There''s no way." Li Yunze pondered, "at present, if it''s OK to do conservative treatment, it''s convenient for me to come here. I''ll talk about it later." Several doctors of the general manager nodded, knowing that this was the only way at present. After studying the new phase of treatment, it was close to midnight. Li Yunze took he Yining to say goodbye to several doctors of the general manager of the army, and did not go to the ward to see old Lin. It''s too late. "I''ll take you back first..." Li Yunze said with a seat belt. "I''ll pick you up after work tomorrow." "Well?" He Yining fanned his eyelashes. "Don''t you want to see old Lin?" Li Yunze said with a smile, "it''s late now. You have to go to work during the day tomorrow. You can only come and see it after work." He Yining just looked at Li Yunze. He was surprised that he saw through her mind. Li Yunze didn''t think it was wrong. He just started the car, asked why he Ning''s home was located, and drove there "You used to quarrel with Nanfang," Li Yunze said, "but every time you go to Lin''s house, you are also the most clever." He Yining sat upright and muttered, "old Lin is naturally dignified. I think it''s terrible to wear a military uniform..." after a pause, she heaved a deep breath and became dignified again. After attending grandma Gu''s funeral during the day, he learned that Lin was not in good health at night. He Yining found that he had left the circle for too long and had changed things and people when he contacted again. Li Yunze looked at he Yining. Her thoughts were written on her face at the moment. He didn''t need to think much to know what she was thinking Li Yunze looked at the corner of his mouth in front of him and unconsciously smiled. Once again, he found that he knew more about he Yining than he thought. It turns out that habits will really become natural. Li Yunze sent why Yining downstairs and saw why Yining untie his seat belt and want to get off. "Aren''t you going to call me up?" Li Yunze asked. Why is Ning stunned? Although he knows that he is probably at Zihan''s house at the moment, he still subconsciously shakes his head in a hurry. "Too, too late..." Li Yunze suddenly leaned over, his face magnified in front of he Yining, and his voice was low and confused. He gently asked, "is it late?" Chapter 1303 Why did ningdun''s heart beat uncontrollably? She looked at Li Yunze''s eyes full of desire and swallowed involuntarily. Men''s desire for sex is an instinct under the structure of the body. And women In front of the man you like, you also have a desire for that aspect. He Yining''s nose was full of the shallow breath of Li Yunze, which made her fascinated in the night. It''s strange to say that Li Yunze spends most of his time in the hospital, but he usually has little breath that belongs to the hospital except when he has just had an operation. "Go up..." Li Yunze''s voice has been a little hoarse, "or is it right here?" In fact, he didn''t think about what to do, but he didn''t intend to give up with him when he Yining got off the bus. He said that in his heart. When he saw why Ning refused him to go to her house, the fire in his heart suddenly couldn''t suppress his desire... Gushed out. "Don''t..." he Yining''s tense hands directly pressed against Li Yunze''s chest, and she said with her lips, "will our relationship... Progress be a little fast?" "Oh?" Li Yunze not only was not pushed away by why Ning, but also bullied a little, "if we start to calculate since childhood, we are already a snail''s speed." "He Ning said. Here, she is not as bold as she was when she was a child. This is the family home. Although it''s difficult to have someone at this time, what if?! A luxury car is parked downstairs, and there are still some indescribable things in the car. Why would you rather imagine what will come out when you look back?! She''s not afraid to say, but she doesn''t want everyone to be pointed out behind her back. Originally, with one by one, she had a lot of aunt level people saying a bunch of messy remarks behind her back But take Li Yunze upstairs. If he turns around and attacks suddenly, or if there is something unexpected, she will be a little square if she is found one by one. Li Yunze took a panoramic view of why Ning changed. Looking at her resistance, he couldn''t help frowning slightly. Raise your hand, gently touch he Yining''s cheek with bony fingers, and then auricle, neck The tenderness of the finger pulp across the skin makes the whole body feel crisp! Yes, that''s how she''s worthless! Why is Ning Zhe''s lips getting tighter and tighter? She gently fanned her eyes and then lowered her eyes. In a voice, she said, "Li Yunze, you don''t feel good because you slept with me, so... You try just for... What''s that?!" At the same time, he Yining raised his eyes to Li Yunze and caught a touch of anger at the bottom of his eyes. Li Yunze let go of why Yining, because he Yining''s words were blocked in his heart, but he still tried to suppress the light of his anger and said, "go upstairs and have a rest early..." "Are you angry?" "It''s not easy," Li Yunze was a little astringent. He looked at he Yining. "You can see it." "..." he Yining secretly glanced down and thought to himself: you are so obvious, I can''t see it?! "Well, go!" Li Yunze attached himself to him and kissed him gently on his face. "I''ll pick you up from work tomorrow." He Yining thought and nodded. As a younger generation, she doesn''t know about Lin Lao. If she knows, she naturally wants to see it. It seems that tomorrow will still be troublesome for Zihan or scorching. "Good night..." "Good night!" Li Yunze looked at why he Ning got off the bus. After he got off the bus, he wanted to wait for him to leave first Li Yunze lowered his eyes and smiled. Maybe because he wanted to try, he Yining''s careful thoughts in the past all look cute now. Is it because he is mature and looks at things differently?! Put down the window, "go upstairs!" "Oh..." why should I rather answer the voice, reluctantly turned and entered the door. Li Yunze didn''t go, but got out of the car, leaned against the door, lit a cigarette and smoked slowly. Although the relationship is "confirmed" today, they really don''t look like a couple to try. Li Yunze took a cigarette and looked at the front with deep eyes At night, the family area is very quiet. It''s more lonely than ever. When a person sleeps too long, he especially misses the night in the South China Sea. He feels hugged Li Yunze smiled at himself, threw away the cigarette, put it out with his feet, got on the bus and started to leave. He passed the age of impulse, and he wanted to have a try with he Yining, not on a whim As long as he wants to be together, he thinks there will be no accident. ¡­¡­ After he Yining came home, he called Fang Zihan and sure enough, he was on her side one by one. "I hear Yan Yan say that Li Yunze wants to try with you?" Fang Zihan gave full play to the characteristics of her gossip reporter. When she asked this, her eyes were shining. "Yes." Listening to why Yining''s joy, he didn''t know what to say. Fang Zihan turned his eyes, "Yining, come on, since Li Yunze has enlightened, I don''t think anything is a matter." "Well?" "I''ll tell you, I thought about it at night..." Fang Zihan adjusted his sitting posture. "Since you''ve tried it all, go to bed several times directly. If you can''t do it last time, go to him twice... If you can''t do it twice, go to bed every day!" "..." why did Ning twitch at the corners of his mouth. "Men, it''s the lower body thinking about the left and right nerves. You can''t stop him from thinking about you, and then give him a small one, and then put the big one in his arms..." Fang Zihan said more and more excitedly. "I''ll tell you, I promise to pull the evidence directly in the next step!" "..." why would you rather lie on the sofa, "imagination is beautiful, and the general reality is hurtful..." Fang Zihan was noncommittal. She felt that Li Yunze still knew to try with Yining, which showed that he was not blind. A person with such a high IQ can stimulate EQ just around the corner. "By the way, I can''t answer one by one tomorrow night..." "Date Li Yunze?!" Fang Zihan directly and excitedly interrupted he Yining''s words, "it''s all right. Anyway, I don''t have many interview tasks recently. You can rest assured to go, or directly take charge of one or one week with Yan Yan. This week, you plan to go to Li Yunze every day!" He Yining buried his face on the sofa What''s it like to have a close and damaging best friend? Look at her now! "It''s over!" Fang Zihan suddenly thought of something. "What''s the matter?" Why would you rather ask. Fang Zihan took a pillow and leaned against the sofa. "Yining, this is the space where Jin shaosi had just returned to Brunei to work, so you flew to Li Yunze''s arms..." Chapter 1304 "What are you talking about?" Why should Ning curl his lips, "I''m just relatives with ace!" "Tut Tut, Yining, are you still lying to yourself?" Fang Zihan turned his eyes. "It''s all confessed. How about relatives? I think it''s a lover or something..." He Yining had a headache. "I think I should keep a little distance from ace. One thing in my heart is that I can''t let go of Li Yunze. In addition, now we have entered the stage of ''try'', and I don''t want to delay him." "The question is whether ace is willing to give you up." Fang Zihan sighed, "I don''t see that he has loved you for so many years and hidden his mind for so many years..." he paused. "Seriously, after ten years of separation, things have changed. He still abides by the original agreement. If you don''t have Li Yunze in your heart, I really agree with you." He Yining didn''t speak. "Woman, it''s tiring to find someone who loves you, and it''s happiness to find someone who loves you..." Fang Zihan sighed. "Isn''t it two people who love each other?" Why would you rather ask. Fang Zihan grinned and wanted to ask: does Li Yunze love you? But think about it, now is a good start, she still doesn''t want a basin of cold water "Yes, what you said is the truth..." Fang Zihan said, "anyway, I can''t realize that I don''t have someone I love and no one loves me." He Yining and Fang Zihan had a relaxed chat for a few minutes. After saying ''good night'' to each other, they hung up the phone. ¡­¡­ Brunei. Jin shaosi just finished handling the company''s affairs and didn''t take a car. He walked with his hands in his pockets on the clean and quiet street late at night Lu Fan slowly followed behind in his car. His sight occasionally looked at the road and occasionally fell on Jin shaosi. Suddenly, Jin shaosi stopped. He looked at the fountain with deep eyes. In the past, there was also a fountain pool in he''s villa. There were many coins in it, all of which were thrown by he Yining. At that time, why would you rather be naive and make a wish with a beautiful fantasy Her wishes are all related to Li Yunze. She just wants Li Yunze to like her or do something with her! Even if she knew that the fountain would not realize her wish "Yining, even the most powerful wishing pool in the world, will not give you your wish." At that time, ACE made some cold mockery. However, he Yining didn''t care at all. He sat on the fountain pool with a smile on his face, holding his hands along the edge, swinging his legs back and forth, "I know..." "I know it''s still so childish." He Yining looked at ace with a full smile. In the sun, her smile was brilliant and could compare the sun. "People always have to think about themselves!" Why should I rather pick my eyebrow, "what I want to get, of course, I know I can''t rely on ethereal things, but rely on my own efforts... I just use this way to give myself more support." As Si looked at he Yining in this way, he was a little unhappy because of jealousy and said, "he Yining, so you can''t let go of yourself?" "Can''t let go..." He Yining didn''t feel the anger of ace at all and jumped down from the fountain pool with a smile, "after all, I''m a person who wants to love him forever... Ha ha!" Why did Ning magic smile and then run to the parking lot, and said excitedly, "continue to love my male god... Even if I''m a female nerve, ha ha!" As he looked at why Ning''s cheerful back, he felt all kinds of taste in his heart Just like Jin shaosi who is looking at the fountain at the moment, he has mixed flavors. "After so many years, I can''t let go of you and you can''t let go of Li Yunze..." Jin shaosi sneered at himself. "Yining, do we all have to fall into a strange circle of love?" If so, can two injured people hold each other for warmth?! Jin shaosi took out his wallet. There were no coins in it except big bills. Looking back, Lu Fan hurried off at the next second. ¡°Boss£¿¡± "Do you have any coins?" Jin shaosi''s voice is a little dry. Lu Fan was stunned and immediately reacted. He quickly found a coin from his pocket and handed it to Jin shaosi. Jin shaosi then walks to the fountain. Lu Fan looks at it curiously Jin shaosi stood next to the fountain. Under the light, the pool water was wrinkled by the night wind, reflecting a dim shadow. Looking at the coins in his hand, Jin shaosi glanced at himself and raised his eyes. With his heart''s wish, he put the coins into the pool When did he place his hope on this ethereal wish?! Jin shaosi drooped his eyes and suddenly found that he could understand what he did in those years However, I want to give myself a belief to stick to it. ¡­¡­ The next day, La was a little gloomy. Li Yunze arrived at the hospital with a fresh look. When he got off the bus, he could obviously feel his happiness. Even if he didn''t feel it himself. Li Yunze stepped into the hospital. Along the way, the medical staff greeted him, and he nodded in response. "Li Shao seems a little different today?" "What''s different?" Some people are ignorant. The person on one side said in doubt: "he nodded to everyone..." "No, we usually say hello. Doesn''t he always respond like this?" The man continued to be ignorant. The person on one side tilted his eyes. "You didn''t find that the corners of his mouth responded with a smile!" "Yes?" "..." the people on one side were speechless. For an ignorant person, she felt she couldn''t talk anymore. Li Yunze pressed the floor of the office and planned to study Lin''s operation again. When he went back to the operation, he wanted to make sure there was no accident in the operation. Although, any operation is risky. The mobile phone rang just when the elevator arrived. Li Yunze took it out and saw that it was from the outpatient department in front. He calmly picked it up "Li Shao, are you in the hospital?" "Just arrived." "Li Shao, there is a patient who specially mentioned the case in the previous meeting. Director Li asked if you want to come and have a look?" Li Yunze listened and answered, "I''ll go there now." Then Li Yunze turned and stepped to the outpatient department "Yunze!" There was a voice behind him. Li Yunze stopped and looked back. She saw Qu Weiwei coming with a smile "Why are you here?" Li Yunze asked. Qu Weiwei just wanted to speak, but she suddenly froze in her mouth. He is... Completely forgetting what she came to him last night?! Secretly suppress the inner unhappiness, Qu Weiwei''s face is a relaxed smile, "I crashed last night, did you forget?" Chapter 1305 When Qu Weiwei said this, Li Yunze suddenly remembered that she called him last night and said she had crashed and hit the car of a pregnant woman who was about to give birth. "Are you okay?" Li Yunze asked. Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze. Although he was asking, the question was obviously casual, just like a ''hello'' who needed to say hello. Qu Weiwei shook her head, "it''s not serious, it''s okay..." "What about pregnant women?" Li Yunze, as a doctor, asked this instinctively. "I gave birth to a son last night. I''ll come and have a look this morning..." Qu Weiwei said with a smile. "Otherwise, why do you think I''m in the hospital?!" "Oh!" Li Yunze nodded. "Busy?" Qu Weiwei asked, "if you''re not busy, ask you something." "I still have some things to do," Li Yunze said. "Look back!" Qu Weiwei secretly clenched her teeth. "It''s all right. I''ll wait for you. I have something to consult. It''s still a little tight." Li Yunze didn''t think much. After saying "well", he said, "go to my office and wait..." then he turned and walked to the outpatient department. Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze''s back, her eyes were slightly deep, and her hands were unconsciously clenched. Such indifference, although not much worse than before, was unacceptable to her as a whole when she thought it was because of he Yining. Turn around Qu Weiwei went to Li Yunze''s office. Looking at the clean and tidy office, Qu Weiwei walks to her desk There is a picture frame on the desk. A photo, I don''t know who took it at will. There are many characters in it... No one is the protagonist in the photo. Gu Beichen and Li Yunze, Li Jinxi and Lin Xiangnan in their youth are all inside There are also Li Yunhao, Li Yunze''s gifted brother, and even he Yining. Qu Weiwei remembers the time of this photo. It was a family party of a rich family, and it was also the first time she followed he Yining to a party in a rich family. Although she has been taken care of by he family since she was a child and hung the servant''s daughter, she basically lives a young lady''s life... The cost of food and clothing has never been too bad. However, the celebrity circle, but she can not enter. And that time, she went It was a kind of party where she had been once and vowed to be a man and enter that circle. He Yining used to pester her. She was very upset. But after that, she knew very well that if she wanted to enter that circle first and brush the sense of existence, she had to accept he Yining, who could do nothing, just because she was the daughter of a rich family. Qu Weiwei looked at the picture and didn''t know what she was talking to Lin Nannan, but she glanced at he Yining in the direction of Li Yunze and tightened her hand slightly. Today, even in foreign countries, she is also a figure that can be seen in the upper class circle, but why, she just can''t enter Li Yunze''s circle?! Just because, at the beginning, he Yining said she was the servant''s daughter, so no matter what she is now, have Li Yunze and them shaped her?! "Dong Dong!" There was a knock at the door. Qu Weiwei put down the photo and looked back At the right time, yanmiao came in. Yan Miao was stunned, and then asked with a disgusted face, "Qu Weiwei, why are you here?" Without giving Qu Weiwei a chance to speak, she continued coldly, "come to see a doctor? Although Li Shao is the authority of Neurology, I don''t think he can see your natural disease with some attributes." There was no malice to hide. "There are several races of people coming to Yunze. In addition to the patients, there is another kind of people who are very close to each other." Qu Weiwei snorted coldly, "I let you down. I seem to be the latter." "Really?" Yan Miao turned his eyes. "Who won''t talk casually? I also said that our family Yining will marry Li Shao right away!" Qu Weiwei thought it funny, "it''s better to dream less during the day." Yanmiao sneered and saw that Li Yunze was not in the office, because there were patients and there was no time to talk with Qu Weiwei here. He just glanced and left the office. "Wait slowly..." after Yan Miao went out, he smiled in the direction of the office, turned around and took his mobile phone to call Li Yunze. Li Yunze is studying a case with director Li of the cardiology department who is attending the clinic today. He took his mobile phone, looked at it and answered, "what''s the matter?" "Li Shao, the director said that the patient in vip39 bed was arranged to enter the operating room at 11 o''clock. Let me tell you." Yan Miao said. Li Yunze looked at the time and said, "wait, I''ll go directly to the operating room." "OK." Yanmiao was not surprised at all. Although Li Shao, a patient in bed 39, is not the main surgeon this time, because the patient''s background and some special reasons, Li Shao will follow up as long as time permits. Yan Miao smiled and looked back at the direction of Li Yunze''s office. Qu Weiwei didn''t expect that Li Yunze didn''t appear until noon. After thinking for a while, she still called Li Yunze, but no one answered. Qu Weiwei didn''t give up and hit again. Still no one answered. "Won''t you be so busy?" Qu Weiwei frowned, "at this time, the outpatient department should also be off duty..." Thinking, Qu Weiwei reluctantly sent another text message, but no one replied. "Li, Yun, Ze..." Qu Weiwei clenched her teeth and shouted, holding her mobile phone hand and tightening it slightly. She didn''t believe it, because Li Yunze treated her like this Even if we know each other, how can we hang her here all the time when we know she''s waiting for him?! Qu Weiwei sits in Li Yunze''s office gnashing her teeth. At the moment, Li Yunze, who has just left the operating room and entered the operating observation room, takes the meal sent by the nurse, stares at the picture on the monitor, and occasionally communicates with the doctor in charge of the knife From beginning to end, he simply forgot that Qu Weiwei was waiting for him in the office. ¡­¡­ He Yining was turning books in the office and suddenly transferred to another department. She had to digest gynecological things faster. "Dr. he, shall we take you to dinner?" Asked a doctor in the same office. "I''ll order some takeout later. You go!" "OK." The doctors made an appointment to have dinner. At the right time, there was a knock on the door The doctor who had reached the door opened the door and saw a courier standing there. "Hello, is Dr. he Yining there?" Asked the courier. "In..." the doctor stepped aside and pointed to he Yining, "over there." "Thank you." The courier thanked him and went to he Yining, "doctor he, your takeout." "Huh?!" Why are you stunned. The courier took out the lunch box from the incubator. "This is your meal..." he took out another packed box, "this is what the customer asked and brought it to you." "Dr. he, if you don''t go to dinner, you have been sent by an envoy for a long time!" "At first glance, it must be a boyfriend!" "..." why Yining was still at a loss. After listening to the doctors who went to dinner say hello and leave, she looked at the courier, "are you sure there''s no mistake?" "Why is Dr. Ning in the Department of Obstetrics and Gynecology of Shuya hospital, right?" He Yining nodded. "That''s right..." the courier said with a smile. "Have a nice meal." Why Ning frowned and looked at the box of Malatang and the packed box in front of him, inexplicably... He remembered the passage about "Malatang" said by Li Yunze in the South China Sea! Chapter 1306 "Can''t Li Yunze order it?" He Yining looked at Malatang and muttered. She looked at the packed box again, came forward and opened it It''s another phone model she''s using now, but it''s new! He Yining was sure to be Li Yunze. She picked up her mobile phone and pressed a card at the bottom. "It was broken yesterday. It''s a companion. Of course, you can also say that it''s the second thing I gave you in the real sense... Yunze." He Yining''s heart was warm and uncontrollable. He looked at his mobile phone and spicy hot. The corners of his mouth couldn''t help smiling because of his experience in the South China Sea. He Yining put the card on the new machine, thought about it and sent a text message to Li Yunze: Thank you for lunch, but eating spicy hot in the office seems to taste a little big! He Yining didn''t wait for Li Yunze to reply. If he was busy at this time, it was estimated that he was in the operating room, so he didn''t send it again. He just opened the spicy perm and started eating after sending a circle of friends I don''t know why it''s hot and spicy. Now it''s sweet and greasy in my mouth. He Yining feels that she is particularly easy to be satisfied, but only with a small move, she can forget herself happily. Soon, the circle of friends had a message reply. Song Tianye: spicy hot in the office? This is your first time Yan Miao: who bought it? Fang Zihan: ouch, I''m starting to show my love. I''m so sour... Tut Tut, didn''t your mobile phone break the screen yesterday? Are you still in the mood to send a circle of friends? The most important thing is that you should not have time to buy a mobile phone while you are in the office... Quickly and honestly. Yanmiao replied again: although someone is not in the operating room at the moment, he is also in the observation room... Tut tut! After yanmiao replied, he looked at Li Yunze who handed the lunch box to the nurse. Standing in front of the observation glass, he looked at the operation of the third Deputy under him, frowned slightly, and his face was a little cold. Yanmiao swallowed it secretly. Li Yunze was generally angry. She came forward, put her cell phone in her pocket and looked at the operation below Today, she didn''t enter the operating room. She''s fine after dinner. She came to watch the operation process. Li Yunze took the phone and pressed the call button in the operating room while the nurse wiped the sweat for the third Deputy Li Yunze said coldly but calmly about the progress of the operation. The third deputy''s eyes widened, then nodded pleasantly at the bottom of his eyes and continued to enter the operation. After Li Yunze''s instruction, the operation entered a faster and more effective progress Yan Miao looked at Li Yunze. No matter what she thought about him, she admired him professionally. All medical colleges and universities, as long as they want to develop in the direction of heart and God, no one doesn''t want to come to Huakang for internship, and no one doesn''t want to be led by Li Yunze or stay in Huakang. Because five years of learning in school may not be as much as one year under Li Yunze. Unfortunately, Li Yunze never brings his own interns The operation was completed at more than 3 p.m. although it took more than four hours, the operation was very successful. Li Yunze left, changed his white coat and reached for the mobile phone in his pocket. There are several missed calls, some called by Gu Beichen, some unimportant, and Qu Weiwei. Seeing Qu Weiwei''s number, Li Yunze remembered that he had asked her to wait in his office in the morning. She frowned slightly, walked to the office and called Gu Beichen back. The man just got out of the elevator. He and Gu Beichen will finish talking. Li Yunze opened the text message while walking. One is Qu Weiwei''s, and the other is why it''s peaceful. He directly ignored Qu Weiwei''s and opened he Yining''s After reading, people have stood in front of the office. With a smile in his mouth, Li Yunze suddenly replied with some evil interest: you''ve seen the spicy and hot paragraph, so do it yourself! He opened the door of his office after looking at the "successful delivery". Qu Weiwei wasn''t there. She just left a note on the table. Li Yunze picked it up and saw it written: asked the nurse and said there was an operation suddenly, so I won''t bother you first. Call me back when you''re done! Li Yunze rubbed the note and threw it into the wastebasket. He called Qu Weiwei back "Finished?" Qu Weiwei''s voice was relaxed without any unnecessary emotion. "Well, I just returned to the office from the operating room." Li Yunze paused, "what''s up?" "Are you free in the evening? Have dinner together, meet and talk..." "No, there are some things in the evening." Li Yunze refused directly. "What about tomorrow?" Li Yunze pondered and didn''t answer. After a knock on the door came from the office, he saw the head nurse come in. "Li Shao, mayor Fu is here." "Vice mayor?" Li Yunze asked, "what is the vice mayor in charge?" The head nurse was stunned. "No, it''s the mayor fu... I''ve arranged for tea in the reception room." As soon as Li Yunze heard it, he reacted, nodded, said to the phone, "I''ll talk about it tomorrow. I have something here. Hang up first." Before Qu Weiwei spoke, Li Yunze had hung up and left the office. ¡­¡­ Qu Weiwei sat in the office of the studio, listening to the "beep beep" hanging up sound from her mobile phone, and her eyes gradually turned scarlet. Even before, Li Yunze had never ignored her so much, even if he was not so enthusiastic about her. Whether it was last night or today If it was because of being with he Yining last night, what about today? Even if you go to the operating room, don''t you have time to call her first? Qu Weiwei slowly put down her mobile phone, and her eyes were full of anger caused by jealousy He Yining, why did I want to be in your aura when I was a child? Now I am not easy to become a man, but also affected by you. Why?! Qu Weiwei bit her teeth tightly together because of her forbearance. After a while, she gradually endured the anger rising at the moment If you want him Yining to taste the taste of being trampled, you can''t do it in a day or two. When a wechat video call came, Qu Weiwei picked it up and saw that it was a customer. After receiving the video, she chatted with the other party about jewelry design for a while and determined a clear direction before hanging up the video. Quit, Qu Weiwei followed the trend into the circle of friends and looked around. When she saw why Ningfa''s circle of friends, her pupils dilated. She knew that he Yining deleted her, but she didn''t delete it. She could still see her nearly five circle of friends information. Qu Weiwei never thought that the last circle of friends was sent a few months ago. He Yining sent it again today, which gave her such a head-on blow! Chapter 1307 Li Yunze didn''t have time to tell him that he was going to have an operation and made her wait in the office like a fool But he has time to give him some takeout! Qu Weiwei looked at he Yining''s circle of friends and stared angrily. Although he Yining didn''t say it clearly, she just said "thank you for ordering the takeout, I still like it", but she inexplicably determined that this is what Li Yunze ordered for him. With a bang, Qu Weiwei threw her mobile phone directly onto her desk and stood up. Because of too much force, the roller chair was pushed far back. Du Peishan just came in with the customer list. When she saw this situation, she was stunned and then asked, "what''s the matter? She''s so angry..." Qu Weiwei looked at Du Peishan and shook her head, "it''s all right." Du Peishan didn''t ask much either. She came forward and said, "the landlady of Chengguang venture capital called and said that if you''re free these two days, send it to her first." "Yes." Qu Weiwei answered and took over the customer list handed over by Du Peishan. "Cheng Guang has been very popular in Los Angeles recently. The boss''s wife Xia Xiao''s jewelry is also prepared for the economic summit in the second half of the year. If you want to make the first shot in China, this is the best opportunity to avoid publicity." Du Peishan said, "but your ability is OK." Qu Weiwei smiled with confidence on her face. The jewelry she designed is very famous in foreign circles, and even has cooperated with several international luxury goods... She still has this confidence. ¡­¡­ It''s almost six o''clock for Li Yunze to send mayor Fu away. Looking at the time, he dialed he Yining as he went back to the office to change his clothes. "What time do you get off work?" Li Yunze asked. He Yining had been unable to extricate himself from embarrassment because of the short breath Li Yunze replied at that time. At this moment, he felt nervous when he heard Li Yunze''s voice. "Huh?" Seeing that no one answered, Li Yunze frowned slightly. "I leave work at six." Why rather face hot said. Just like being a thief, she looked around and felt a little relieved when she saw no one looking No way, you can blush when you answer the phone, and you don''t know what you''re laughing at?! "Well, wait. I''ll pick you up now..." "Oh," he Yining bit his lower lip, "then slow down on the road." Li Yunze stopped slowly, listening to the explanation of why Ning Weng Sheng Weng Qi, his heart was warm. "OK..." Li Yunze answered, hung up the phone and continued to walk to the office. However, the pace at the moment is obviously much happier. "How do I feel that Li Shao is a little sulky today?" The head nurse put her arm on the table of the nurse station and looked at her face. "It''s probably done by a woman." A nurse opened the medical record folder and said casually, "isn''t there a beautiful woman who has been in Li Shao''s office this morning? Isn''t that Qu Weiwei, the main designer of Vivian studio... Last time I reported that she had an affair with Li Shao!" "Really?" The head nurse is curious. "You don''t have time to gossip every day except for work, that is, your man and your son... There will be a lot less fun." The head nurse shrugged and said, "when you have a home, you will know how busy you are and live without yourself. You either make money or take care of your home all day... It''s all life!" Several unmarried little nurses couldn''t agree with each other and expressed that even if they got married, they wouldn''t spend all their time at home. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze went to pick up he Yining and went directly to the military general hospital. He Ning is as good as ever when visiting old Lin. Old Lin sighed for a while, looked at Li Yunze and why Ning, and said with a smile, "girl Ning, your wish has come true for many years!" He Yining''s face suddenly turned red, "Grandpa Lin..." Old Lin ''ha ha'' smiled and sighed, "Alas... In the past, grandma Gu and grandpa Gu and I could still talk about you. Now we are happy for you when we see you are well and together with Yunze again." Speaking of grandma Gu, there was a silence in the ward. Yesterday, old Lin suddenly fell ill. It was more or less because of grandma Gu''s funeral. After chatting for a while, Li Yunze and he Yining left the hospital after the sky darkened. "What would you like to eat?" Li Yunze asked. Why rather wear a seat belt and say, "whatever." "It is said that when women say casual, if they are really casual, most men die miserably?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows, and his words were obviously full of evil charm. Why was Ning stunned, and then he laughed, "guess?" Li Yunze started the car. Except when necessary, most of he Yining prefer to eat in public places and feel relaxed. Perhaps this is also why she made two friends Fang Zihan and yanmiao, which is more in line with her temperament. Li Yunze didn''t ask any more. He Yining went directly to the night market. "Jinxi said that there is a home here. Fried rice noodles are the best in Los Angeles. You can try them." Li Yunze took he Yining''s hand and shuttled through the crowd in the night market. Fortunately, Li Yunze and Gu Beichen are different. Even in this place, there won''t be too much trouble except for some sideways looks and temperament. "Boss, have an ice coke!" Why would you rather eat happily? Your face is all shining. "Normal temperature water." Li Yunze immediately stopped, "you''ve added so much pepper here, and then drink the carbonated gas of ice. You''re still a doctor..." He Yining looked at the coke that the boss had held in his hand and looked reluctant, but under Li Yunze''s eyes of ''I''ll look at you and don''t say anything'', she could only change the water bitterly. Hang your eyes and continue to eat "How do you feel that there is no warmth and you have found a housekeeper?!" Why rather mutter. Of course, she still thought she was saying it in her heart. When she found the sound, she looked at Li Yunze''s strange look and grinned awkwardly "I think we should eat less hot pot and spicy hot pot in the future!" "..." why do you rather shrink your mouth, "can''t I be wrong?" Li Yunze looked at her like this and was inexplicably made to laugh. Why should I rather see him smile, feel a little relieved, and then eat happily again. Yesterday, she began to "try". According to today''s development, she suddenly felt that the beauty lies in tomorrow. "Your home, my home?" Li Yunze asked after getting on the bus. He Yining''s mobile phone rang before he answered and responded She took it out and saw that it was Jin shaosi. She subconsciously looked at Li Yunze. Li Yunze''s vision just crossed the screen. He looked at why Ning''s face was'' guilty of being a thief '', and sneered at the corners of his mouth, "it seems that it''s better for my family... Enough trouble!" Chapter 1308 He Yining didn''t pay attention to Li Yunze''s words. He just looked at him while answering the phone. "Yining..." Jin shaosi''s magnetic voice came from the other side. Why should Ning gently answer the voice and look at Li Yunze again. Li Yunze snorted and continued driving. Why did Ning zhe lower the corner of his mouth and hang his eyes to answer the voice, "en... You''re back?" "I won''t go back to Los Angeles tomorrow," Jin said with a smile "Oh, when?" "Afternoon." Jin shaosi listened to he Yining''s voice and felt a sense of happiness filled his heart. "Let''s have dinner one by one at night, huh?" Why should Ning subconsciously look at Li Yunze? Just as he glanced over, she immediately tightened her heart, swallowed secretly, and changed the mobile phone from the left ear to the right ear. "I don''t know tomorrow..." he Yining swallowed the words behind him with the breath suddenly rising inside. She looked at Li Yunze and bit her lip. Jin shaosi felt why he Ning''s wrong Sutra and asked lightly, "it''s inconvenient to talk?" "A little..." he Yining already felt his scalp numb. Jin shaosi moved his lips and wanted to ask her if she was with Li Yunze at the moment, but he didn''t have the courage to speak. Even if he felt that he should not be with Li Yunze But what if?! Jin Xiaosi''s eyes fell and his mouth fell After competing for the position of the Jin family for ten years, he had forgotten what fear is, but now he is afraid that Yining can''t let Li Yunze go. "Then I''ll talk about it when I arrive tomorrow." Jin shaosi''s voice didn''t reveal much emotion. "OK..." He Yining said goodbye to Jin shaosi and hung up. Li Yunze drove silently, didn''t ask why he Ning anything, and didn''t go to see her. Why do you prefer to sit quietly in the car? Just at dinner, there was a peaceful atmosphere. It''s obvious that it was disturbed by ACE''s phone at the moment. "That..." he Yining tried to explain, "me and ACE..." Li Yunze glanced at he Yining and didn''t speak. But after waiting for a long time, he Yining''s explanation did not continue. Immediately, Li Yunze felt uncomfortable. Both of them were silent, and the atmosphere was a little strange. When the car stopped in the parking space of the underground parking lot of the apartment building, he Yining suddenly realized, "where is this...?" Asked, she turned to Li Yunze. Without saying anything, he untied his seat belt, opened the door and got out of the car. Why should Ning''s sight follow Li Yunze''s figure to his door, and he saw that the door was suddenly opened. He couldn''t hear the voice of emotion, "get off." He Yining felt Li Yunze''s anger and some grievances, but he got off the bus obediently. Li Yunze didn''t speak, took he Yining''s hand and went to the elevator The atmosphere is a little stiff. Why should Ning secretly look at Li Yunze and mutter in his heart: you and Qu Weiwei are not clear. Why are you angry? I''m not angry yet... Hum, I love you a lot, so I don''t have enough confidence to lose face with you?! Li Yunze''s sight suddenly ''swish'' and looked at he Yining. He Yining was really sick in his heart. When he saw Li Yunze''s eyes, he suddenly "clicked" and hurriedly lowered his eyes as if he didn''t see it. Li Yunze took back his sight when the elevator arrived and took he Yining to the house "Password..." Li Yunze calmly gave he Yining the password of his house and pressed it. Hearing the click, Li Yunze opened the door. High end apartments are full of the atmosphere of famous artists. "Li Yunze, you... Huh!" He Yining originally wanted to be "backbone" and said that if you hang your face, I''ll leave But before the words could be said, the man had been pressed on the door and his lips were sealed the next second. Kiss, come without the slightest prelude, the overwhelming occupation, don''t give why Ning a breath. Why Ning stared at Li Yunze''s face close at hand. For a moment, he forgot his reaction... Until there was a stabbing pain on his lips. "Hmm..." why did Ning frown in pain, and his voice choked in his throat. "He Yining, can you concentrate?" Li Yunze''s voice was filled with a bit of gnashing teeth, as if it was caused by lust, and it seemed to be a little angry. He Yining only felt that the place bitten to her lips was numb and astringent. Her eyes were filled with complex emotions. She looked at Li Yunze and wanted to speak, but she was blocked by Li Yunze again. Crazy kiss, full of hot touch Until those indescribable things happen, why do you prefer not to have any dominant position. From the confusion at the beginning to the cooperation later, I completely forgot some strange smells mixed between the two people before. Li Yunze found that he was poisoned by why Ning Otherwise, how can you be jealous and go to bed directly to solve the problem? The most important thing is that he Yining was conquered by his enchanting and charming appearance, but with enthusiasm, and forgot what he was still angry just now. Crazy in the past, into a sentimental tenderness to wait for. He Yining was first blown by the strong wind and then greeted the baptism like a continuous drizzle. He has long been intoxicated with everything Li Yunze gave her The love songs at night are particularly moving. If embracing each other is the most direct confession, why do you think she wants to put all her feelings for Li Yunze inside Even if this is a dream. ¡­¡­ The next day, Li Yunze naturally wouldn''t give why Ning the opportunity to accompany Jin shaosi. When Jin shaosi heard why Yining couldn''t have dinner with him after getting off the plane, there was an obvious evasive mood in his voice. "Yining," Jin shaosi asked, "is it because of my feelings for you, so do you want to alienate me?" Why rather tangle, "not..." she thought for a moment, but said, "I really don''t have time tonight. Well, I happen to have half a day off tomorrow afternoon. If you have time at noon, let''s have dinner together." She thought that since she and Li Yunze are trying and the relationship seems to be progressing well, she needs to make it clear with ACE even if she doesn''t want to tell others for the time being. Her obsession, no matter what the result, should be borne by herself and should not be consumed by ACE. Even if... She may not be able to persuade ace at all. "OK." When he Yining took the initiative to ask for dinner, Jin shaosi spilled a satisfied smile from the corner of his mouth. "Well, hang up first." Why should Ning Shang say. "See you at noon tomorrow." Jin Shao stun stopped and didn''t say what he wanted to say. He just waited until tomorrow. Why rather hang up the phone, look at the time and frown slightly. Because of Li Yunze, she didn''t have time to answer one by one these two days. Although she went to Zihan to pick up one by one to go to school in the morning, she can''t do this every day "Do you want to tell him one by one?" Why rather tangle from the Nan. Chapter 1309 Fang Zihan just finished a news, looked at the time, and hurriedly said to the people who were with the news: "I have something else to do. Let''s go first. You can deal with the rest?" "Date?!" Fang Zihan is used to joking with everyone at ordinary times. He nodded his head and replied, "yes, so we can''t be late..." We are used to Fang Zihan''s character, and naturally no one believes it, but we still "allow" her to go first. Fang Zihan is careless. She is very popular in magazines at ordinary times. Naturally, she has some small conveniences. She can get them at will. He hurried to the kindergarten of 11 and looked at the door that had not been opened. Fang Zihan breathed a sigh. She took out her mobile phone, edited the wechat message and sent it to he Yining: Yining, we all go to the battle to assist you and Li Yunze. If you don''t work hard this time, you''ll be so sorry to us. After the delivery, the gate of the kindergarten opened. Fang Zihan installed a mobile phone. Because he was small, he hung his neck and looked at the door "Aunt Zihan..." one by one, with bright eyes, waved a small hand to Fang Zihan. Fang Zihan hurried forward, received one by one with the teacher, and left the school one by one. "What would you like to eat?" Fang Zihan asked. "Shall we go for pizza?" One by one. Fang Zihan immediately made an ''OK'' gesture and happily led one by one to Pizza Hut in the nearby mall. ¡­¡­ Qu Weiwei has just come out from runzeyuan and Xia Xiao to talk about the design. She plans to buy something to eat in a restaurant next to the mall and go back to the studio. Before getting off the bus, I saw a large and small figure walking by the side of the road, frowning slightly and meditating. "Fang Zihan has children?" Qu Weiwei sat in the car, slightly confused, and looked at her closely. Fang Zihan and 11 get closer and closer. They don''t know what to talk about. They are obviously very happy. Qu Weiwei didn''t get out of the car. She just looked at the two people who were about to reach the car. Suddenly, her pupils widened uncontrollably. She grew up with he Yining. It can be said that she grew up with Li Yunze. If others can''t see it, how can she not see who the child looks like? Although they are not much like Li Yunze, most of them are still like he Yining, but she can be sure Why is this child Ning and Li Yunze. Qu Weiwei''s hand holding the steering wheel gradually began to exert force, and her joints had turned white. Her breathing became shortness, staring at Fang Zihan and passing by her body one by one. The whole person seemed to be under some medicine, suffocating and unable to breathe. "How could..." Qu Weiwei murmured, "how could this happen?!" Qu Weiwei muttered to herself for a while. She couldn''t face such a situation for a while. In my mind, I crossed the words when yanmiao and he Yining were talking. Is this child the one in yanmiao''s mouth?! In this way, the child is indeed the child of he Yining and Li Yunze, but I''m afraid Li Yunze doesn''t know! Qu Weiwei subconsciously took her mobile phone, called out Li Yunze''s number and tried to dial it ¡­¡­ Li Yunze and he Yining are shopping in the supermarket. They were supposed to go out for dinner, but inadvertently talked about cooking. He Yining mentioned that he is good at cooking now. Li Yunze doesn''t believe it. After all, although he would rather say that she cooked the meals and cakes every day, they were actually made by his servant sister-in-law Feng. At that time, he was too lazy to explain why he Yining, and naturally he was too lazy to expose her. One obviously doesn''t believe it, and the other has to say that it''s not what it used to be. The final result is naturally that the two come to the supermarket to buy vegetables and intend to go back to Li Yunze''s apartment. He Yining is in charge. The mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. Li Yunze looked at he Yining, who was picking out spices, and took out the mobile phone Seeing Qu Weiwei, Li Yunze instinctively frowned slightly, but he still answered the phone. "Yunze..." Qu Weiwei''s voice was a little hasty under condensation. Li Yunze suddenly remembered that Qu Weiwei had something to do with him. He made a forced appointment with he Yining last night because of the phone call of major Jin, and forgot "Let''s have lunch tomorrow. Make time for dinner." Li Yunze spoke. Qu Weiwei suddenly stopped if she wanted to speak. Not because Li Yunze said he would meet tomorrow, but because he suddenly reacted Since Li Yunze didn''t know, why did she say it? The most important thing is that since he Yining is hiding it, now he has a try with Li Yunze. I''m afraid he just wants to wait until it''s appropriate to disclose the child. If Yunze knows about the child, I''m afraid this try is a certainty. In that case, why did she help him Yining? Qu Weiwei took a deep breath and looked at Fang Zihan and 11 who had gone away from the reversing mirror. There was a cruel look at the bottom of her eyes, but the corners of her mouth smiled and answered, "tomorrow noon, won''t there be anything else?" "No." Li Yunze spoke. "OK, see you at noon tomorrow." "Yes." Li Yunze answered and hung up. He loaded his mobile phone, walked up to he Yining, took a bottle of soy sauce in her hand and put it in the shopping cart. "This brand is better." He Yining looked at Li Yunze and thought what was wrong, but he didn''t react. Why did he know the advantages and disadvantages of soy sauce brand?! "I have something to do at noon tomorrow. You remember to eat..." Li Yunze said. "Can I give you some takeout or..." "I''ll just eat at the gate of the hospital with my colleagues." He Yining said with some guilty heart. "Well, good." Li Yunze nodded and went to buy other ingredients with he Yining. Why should Ning take a sneak look at Li Yunze occasionally? Because she has an appointment with Jin shaosi at noon tomorrow, she always feels like a thief in her heart. Li Yunze has no emotion at all. Qu Weiwei has never left any trace in his heart, and naturally there is no good feeling of guilty. To help is just to get to know each other. At the same time, we have the relationship between lovers and not lovers for those years. After buying good things, Li Yunze and he Yining went back to Li Yunze''s house together. Because it''s a new residence here, the kitchen hasn''t opened fire once. Today is the first time Li Yunze thought of this and looked at he Yining, who was putting condiments, "why don''t you move here?" "Well?" He Yining didn''t react. "Yining," Li Yunze suddenly pulled he Yining, turned around and put her on the glass platform, "move here and live. As long as I have nothing to do, I''ll pick you up to and from work..." He Yining''s sudden and deep eyes towards Li Yunze gradually lost his mind. "Since you want to have a good try, everyone is not small, so start from life and become more natural..." Li Yunze''s voice gradually lowered. She slowly approached why Yining. Her voice asked with unique charm, "Yining, move over and live together?" Chapter 1310 He Yining has been confused by Li Yunze''s slow and charming voice. The whole person''s head is a fog and has no way to think. He... Is this asking for cohabitation?! Li Yunze''s kiss is like a feather falling on the skin. It''s itchy and warm. People''s heart can follow anesthesia He Yining''s breath began to rush. She couldn''t think or breathe. Li Yunze''s lips gently lifted he Yining''s neck, so he listened to his voice more and more magnetic and asked, "Yining, do you want to move in together?" He Yining''s words instinctively rushed out of his throat and eyes, and wanted to answer without going through his brain. Living with Li Yunze is why she is only a little short of the ultimate dream. How can she refuse?! But He Yining suddenly woke up when he was about to blurt out his promise. One by one! Do you have to give up one by one in order to fulfill your dreams? I can''t take care of one by one these two days. She''s already very guilty If she doesn''t plan to tell Li Yunze one by one for the time being, she can''t live with him. no way! Why rather hurriedly resisted Li Yunze''s attempt to seduce her, his face flushed his lower lip and shook his head hard. Li Yunze is obviously very strange why he would rather refuse. After all, shouldn''t Yining be happy to be with him? Unexpectedly, he was unexpectedly rejected "What''s the matter?" Li Yunze''s voice was obviously a little hoarse, and he Yining looked puzzled. Why should I hang my eyes rather than look at Li Yunze, for fear of revealing my emotions. After all, in front of Li Yunze, she really can''t be calm and tolerant to deceive him... She still has this self-knowledge. "Li Yunze..." why did he shout rather stuffy. "Yes." Li Yunze answered. Why Ning''s head dropped a little lower, like a child who did something wrong, said in a low voice: "well, although I like it very much, but I also have..." After a pause, she had no good intention to describe that she also had a little girl''s fantasy of love. After all, she was no longer young. "I just think, we just said to try and go to bed, and then go to bed and live together..." Why do you prefer to say that the lower the voice, it''s like a mosquito humming. But Li Yunze listened clearly and understood what he Yining meant in an instant. Although a man has a great demand for his lower body, he has never engaged in random male-female relations even if he laughs on occasions for so many years Even if he Yining wants to move here, he does have the demand in that regard, but he himself knows very well, not completely. With a slight sigh, Li Yunze took Ning into his arms He felt he Yining''s lack of confidence and fear, and he knew what caused it. If he Yining didn''t refuse all the time when he was a child and can''t do whatever he wants now, how can he be so insecure?! "I want you, it''s not just a man''s need..." Li Yunze didn''t avoid this physiological problem. After all, both of them are doctors, and everyone knows that very well. "Yining, just because we haven''t just met, okay?" He Yining thought for a while before he understood Li Yunze''s words. They are not strange, even familiar. However, the two talents have just begun. She doesn''t want to expose them one by one so soon. In that case, she will accept her under the pressure that Li Yunze has to bear. Finally, what if they suffer more from each other? In that way, it will hurt not only yourself, but also one by one. Seeing why he would rather not speak, Li Yunze sighed again, "don''t move here first. In fact, it''s good to have hope." He Yining paused for a few seconds before making a soft "um" sound. Li Yunze let go of he Yining. "Cook quickly, chef..." after a pause, he raised his eyebrow and said, "you can''t eat any more. You always have to eat... Hungry!" Then he touched his stomach. He Yining blushed again when he heard Li Yunze say he couldn''t eat himself. In order to hide her shyness, she quickly turned around and went to wash and cut vegetables. However, I don''t know whether it''s because of the guilty heart just now or because Li Yunze has been in the kitchen. She''s too nervous Suddenly, I just felt a tingling pain in my fingers. Why would I rather "hiss" and suck back? My consciousness instinctively lifted up, and I saw that there was already wet red overflow above. Li Yunze came forward for the first time and frowned at he Yining''s fingers. "I bought meat today. You don''t need to put your own meat into the pot..." He said helplessly, his voice clearly crossed the pain, and then with the wronged he Yining out of the kitchen, hurried to get the household medicine box. Fortunately, in the doctor''s home, the standing medicines are more comprehensive than ordinary families. He Yining looked at Li Yunze''s techniques and actions to deal with the wound, and his eyes were full of worship and admiration. Although it was a small knife wound that only needed a band aid to fix, Li Yunze handled it forcefully... It was perfect. "I haven''t seen this band aid..." why would you rather hold up your fingers and look at the last band aid. "I was bored before." Li Yunze replied casually, "it has not been put into production." He Yining looked at Li Yunze and felt a sense of joy that "how can a man be so awesome?". In fact, many people don''t know that there are many medical things in the Li family, which are not external at all, but internal digestion. Even like this band aid, I don''t know it internally. It''s only for private use. He Yining was thinking and saw Li Yunze get up and go to the kitchen "What are you doing?" Why should I ask rather quietly. "Your hand is hurt. I''d better do it." Li Yunze''s voice was obviously a little helpless. He Yining didn''t pay attention to listening, but widened his eyes and looked unbelievable. Li Yunze can cook?! God, can he cook? Why did Ning get up quickly and follow the past Don''t blame her for thinking so. After all, she really has no way to think that a person who holds a scalpel and medicine reagent tube with both hands all day will take a kitchen knife. However, he Yining was shocked when she saw Li Yunze''s skillful technique and fast action, and even the cut dishes were comparable to the chef. When it comes to eating delicious dishes, he Yining''s heart is broken. Why is she a woman, even if cooking is not as good as ACE, she is so far away from Li Yunze, who should not be able to cook at all. Thanks to her confidence before, she said that she was not what she used to be. She was very good at cooking. But in front of the dishes made by Li Yunze, her can only be regarded as reluctantly eating at most. "Li Yunze..." "Huh?" Li Yunze looked at why he Ning. Why rather bite the lower lip, "have you ever reported to any chef training class?" "..." Li Yunze immediately stiffened and twitched at the corners of his mouth. Chapter 1311 "Talent, do you know what talent is?" Li Yunze said dully. "This is not the first time to cook, but also gifted..." he Yining looked at it with a look, "why do you cook?" "It''s OK for you to cook," said Li Ze. "I''m not doing it!" Why should Ning curl her lips? In order to hide the truth that she has been inferior to Li Yunze for several years, she will not admit the thing of "talent". No wonder I know which kind of soy sauce is better in the supermarket "I haven''t heard that you can cook. You can''t learn it in recent years?" He Yining was curious, "anyway, I haven''t heard of it before. Beichen and Nannan haven''t said you can cook." Li Yunze''s face was a little strange, but he soon covered it up. When it comes to cooking, I didn''t think deeply before. Now when I look back, the reason is a little difficult to open. Before that, why would you rather cook some dark dishes and "force" him to eat all kinds of original dishes. It''s really awful. She probably realized it, so she began to let sister-in-law Feng do it and lied that she did it herself. He felt strange at that time. It was just cooking. Is it so difficult? He actually tried The things that can be tried should be carried out secretly, or the South and North stars will know and laugh at him. After all, he hates why Ning so much. As for knife workers, it''s entirely OCD. In his operation, the requirements of his knife technique are called "abnormal" by people who have seen his operation. Cutting vegetables is also using a knife. Naturally, he should also be extreme "But your kitchen is so new that you have to buy everything... How can you keep such a good workmanship when you don''t cook at ordinary times?" He Yining said strangely. Li Yunze looked at her. There were things in the kitchen in the house of Yudu apartment before. It was only because of Qu Weiwei that he had just moved here. Naturally, he was not prepared. Li Yunze didn''t give this reason to he Yining, but casually said: "you can''t envy the gifted things..." "..." why would you rather twitch at the corners of your mouth? "You are saying in disguise that I am stupid!" "Well, the best thing you can do is know yourself." "..." why did you stop talking and choke. I''m so angry. I want to put a bowl of rice directly into Li Yunze''s mouth so that he can''t speak. ¡­¡­ Jin shaosi stood in front of the window with his hands in his pockets, looking at the prosperity of Los Angeles and gradually deepening his eyes. Come back here, just silently accompany, he is unwilling. However, if Yining is forced, he can''t do it Jin shaosi slowly took back his sight and turned his head. On the table, there were his gifts to he Yining and 11. Yining, what should I do? After ten years of ups and downs of the Jin family, Jin shaosi has been used to various means to get what he wants. It will be possible only if he holds everything in his own hands But it happened that he couldn''t do it to her! "Dong Dong!" Jin shaosi withdrew his thoughts and said, "come in." Su ruomin still wore a decent business suit and walked in with 10 cm high stilettos. "Boss, Tan Zhonglang has promised to meet you." Jin shaosi turned around, "the time is set the day after tomorrow!" "OK." Su ruomin responded and handed Jin shaosi a document when he sat down. "The winery and vineyard have begun to prepare for the first phase of transformation. If boss thinks there is no problem, I will start to integrate into Jin''s group tomorrow and prepare for the press conference." "There''s no need to merge into the group," Jin shaosi said as he opened the document. "When everything is on track, I''ll give it to Yining..." he raised his eyes and looked ahead, with complex emotions flowing through his eyes. "Whether she likes wine or not, it''s always the place where she lived from childhood and has the memory of her parents." Su ruomin felt a little distressed for Jin shaosi. She sighed quietly and answered, "OK, I see." "Yes." After reading the document and signing it, Jin shaosi handed it to Su ruomin. "Ruomin, I know what you''re thinking..." he looked up at Su ruomin. "She''s different from the company. You''ll understand when you meet the person you want to love." "I don''t want love. Work is my love." Su ruomin smiled, "boss, have a rest earlier." Jin shaosi nodded slightly and watched Su ruomin leave, then a sentence floated out: "love, how can you decide whether you want it or not? When it''s not handled in time, you know that no matter who you are, you will be at a loss in front of love and do what you think you won''t and can''t do in your life, just like losing your IQ." ¡­¡­ the second day. He Yining arrived at Fang Zihan''s house just after getting up one by one. When going to wash one by one, Fang Zihan took the opportunity to inquire about the progress of he Yining and Li Yunze. Hearing that Li Yunze wanted to live with he Yining, he Yining refused, and Fang Zihan turned his eyes immediately. "Are you stupid?!" Fang Zihan said with a look of hatred for iron and steel, "Yan Yan and I can take care of each other first. If you win Li Yunze in one fell swoop, you can have a family and a father one by one. Isn''t it better?" Why Ning Zhe''s mouth, did not say the reason. After all, she can''t trust Zihan and Yanyan one by one because of herself. In addition, Zihan and Yanyan''s life should not be paid unconditionally because of her. Friends can help each other, but she can''t accept it with ease. After breakfast, he Yining took the subway to school one by one. "Mom, in fact, if you are busy, you don''t have to pick me up." One by one, he looked up on the road and said, "I heard aunt Zihan say that you are in love!" 11''s eyes are shining, which is completely different from other children. They will reject this aspect and think that their mother will not want herself. 11''s heart always believes that as long as he Yining finds a boyfriend, she will have a father. For Dad''s obsession, one by one seems to have been unable to care about others. He Yining began to say to Fang Zihan that she didn''t feel anything. If she and Li Yunze were together and could accept them one by one from the subconscious, it would be the best. "Although it has just begun, my mother hopes it will develop well." He Yining said. One by one smiled and said, "mom is finally in love..." after that, the little girl suddenly thought of something, frowned and looked up at he Yining, "Mom, will that uncle mind one by one?" He Yining was stabbed into tears and his nose suddenly became sour. She squatted down, tried to bear the sour look at one by one, gently rubbed her head and said, "as long as his mother is with him at last, he won''t mind one by one, and even love one by one." "Really?" One by one''s eyes twinkled in an instant. Why rather smile and nod, "really." "Great..." one by one, his small face smiled, and his eyes were full of happiness under expectation. He Yining was in pain because of guilt. Her selfishness deepened her obsession with her father one by one. Suddenly, she was so afraid that she couldn''t get together with Li Yunze at last. Why would you rather hold one by one''s small hand and continue to walk from the subway station to the school? All the way, you are listening to one by one and talking about the interesting things in the school yesterday. She knew that she was happy one by one because she knew that her mother''s unknown boyfriend did not exclude her, and she would have a father. A car stopped at the side of the road opposite the kindergarten. Qu Weiwei looked at why she would rather pull one by one to the teacher who picked up the child The fundus of the eyes gradually overflowed with a cold smile. "Sure enough, it''s her child!" Chapter 1312 "Bye, mom!" One by one, he Yining waved his little hand and went to the teacher. He Yining also waved one by one before turning to the hospital. Qu Weiwei looked at he Yining''s back like this, with a vicious light in her eyes under complex emotions. "He Yining, what if you have Li Yunze''s children?" Qu Weiwei snorted coldly, "you''ll never be with him. It''s impossible." Gnashing her teeth was filled with boxes under jealousy. Qu Weiwei''s vision gradually narrowed up, and the gloominess of the fundus of her eyes became more and more serious. It doesn''t make sense. You have lost everything, and you can finally become a winner in life and get everything you want He Yining, we''ll see. Only those who laugh last are the real winners. Qu Weiwei suddenly opened her eyes, and the bottom of her eyes clearly crossed with a sneer. The car is about to start. She picked up the phone and saw that it was Xia Xiao calling. When she picked it up, she put it in her ear, "Mrs. Chen." "Vivian, are you in the studio?" Xia Xiao asked. "We''ll be there in about half an hour. Will Mrs. Cheng come and make the design drawing and make a final decision?" Qu Weiwei asked. "I''ll be in your studio in ten minutes. Wait for you in your office." "OK." Qu Weiwei answered, hung up the phone and started the car. Before leaving, I also looked at the direction of the kindergarten thoughtfully. As soon as Qu Weiwei arrived at the studio, Du Peishan greeted her and said, "Xia Xiao has been here for a while and is waiting for you in the office." "I know." Qu Weiwei kept walking to the office. Xia Xiao saw Qu Weiwei come in, put down the design drawing she was looking at and said, "Vivian, I''m very satisfied with the design." "If only Mrs. Cheng is satisfied." Qu Weiwei sat down and looked at Xia Xiao''s face. She asked with concern, "Mrs. Cheng doesn''t seem very comfortable." Xia Xiao nodded, covered his lower abdomen with his hand and said, "pregnant." Qu Weiwei looked at Xia Xiao strangely. "Mrs. Cheng looks... Not very happy?" Xia Xiao was fine. Qu Weiwei saw through her at a glance and said with a deep sigh: "Guangying likes boys and is very serious about boys. I didn''t tell him when I was pregnant. I had an examination first..." At this point, Qu Weiwei has understood Xia Xiao''s meaning. It seems that the examination result should be a girl. I went to Xia Xiao''s house and saw her look the same. It seems... It should be the news I just got this morning. Qu Weiwei comforted and listened to Xia Xiao''s meaning to kill the child. Her relationship with Cheng Guangying was not very strong. Now Cheng Guangying''s venture capital is so big. Xia Xiao''s pregnancy was a good thing, but if she knew it was a girl, I''m afraid "I''m thinking about whether to do it." Xia Xiao smiled with self mockery, "forget it, talk about it..." after a pause, she looked at the design draft and said, "this time, orange light may order a batch of jewelry with our logo to give to important VIP customers. Vivian, do you have any good suggestions?" Qu Weiwei is a smart person, because she is engaged in the business of private customized jewelry. Naturally, the people she comes into contact with are rich and noble women. When she grew up in he family, she also saw the twists and turns of the rich. What was Xia Xiao''s mind? She can say that she had guessed that it was almost ten years old. Look back, just knock on the side Maybe if you help her, you can "help" yourself. ¡­¡­ Jin shaosi handed Su ruomin the approved documents. "It''s not an urgent matter. Don''t call me at noon." "OK, boss!" Su ruomin nodded, "Tan Zhonglang, I have an appointment for tomorrow night." "Yes." Jin shaosi answered. Tan Zhonglang used to be a winemaker trained by he Tianshu in he family, just like Jin shaosi. However, Jin shaosi finally left his family because his family came, but Tan Zhonglang didn''t. Mr. Jin looked at the time, got up, took his suit and coat and went outside the winery. Jin''s group did not invest much in Los Angeles before, and there was no special office building. The main purpose of Jin shaosi''s return to Los Angeles was he Yining. Now he handles business, basically either at home or in the winery. After arriving at the hospital, Jin shaosi waited until the time when he got off work before calling he Yining, "are you off work?" "I still have something to deal with in my hand. It''ll be ready soon..." he Yining said, "have you arrived?" "No hurry, my car is waiting for you in the yard." "Well, good!" He Yining hurriedly explained what he was doing and hurried to the parking lot Just after he Yining got into the car of Jin shaosi, a text message came from his mobile phone. He Yining said hello to Jin shaosi while taking out his mobile phone and opening it. It''s Li Yunze''s: remember to eat. I''ll go to the hospital to pick you up in the evening. Why did ningdun feel guilty about his mouth, subconsciously looked at Jin shaosi first, and then replied: I have an appointment with Zihan in the evening. She didn''t go to work in the afternoon because she had to have dinner with ace at noon. Naturally, she didn''t tell Li Yunze that she didn''t go to work. Looking at the text messages sent out, he Yining was even more guilty because he lied. He Yining, what are you feeling guilty about? You just have dinner with ACE and make things clear Most importantly, you also have your own private space, don''t you?! But the words are like this. Why don''t you know why? It''s more and more guilty. Li Yunze quickly replied: Fang Zihan? Well, good! He Yining looked at Li Yunze''s reply, feeling guilty and sweating behind him. She didn''t reply again. She was afraid of saying more and making more mistakes. She was also afraid of a lie and asking for more lies to circle "Do you have anything to eat?" Jin shaosi looked at he Yining. His face had been changing complicatedly since he got on the bus. "You decide..." why would you rather pull the corners of your mouth. Jin shaosi nodded and didn''t expose why Ning''s guilty face was written. Who was the person who just texted her? Li Yunze? Otherwise, who can make Yining look like that?! Jin shaosi looked at he Yining again and ordered Lu fan to say, "go to diamond star." "Yes, boss." ¡­¡­ Li Yunze waited and frowned slightly when he Yining didn''t reply to the text message. At this time, obstetrics and Gynecology should not be busy Besides, he Yining has just transferred to another department, and it is impossible to enter the operating room. Li Yunze looked at his mobile phone again, and he had an unspeakable feeling in his heart. He seemed to feel something, but he was at a loss. Thinking, Li Yunze''s mobile phone rang. Seeing that it was Qu Weiwei''s, Li Yunze indifferently picked it up, "I''ve just finished here. Let''s make an appointment where!" "OK." "If you don''t think about the time, how should you miss the song?" said Wei slightly "Yes." Chapter 1313 Diamond Star western restaurant. The gentle piano music flows in the air, which makes people''s tense mood become slightly soothing in such an environment. But the only reason why the mood of rather guilty heart has been maintained. Jin shaosi glanced at her, took the meal card and ordered the meal without any hesitation. If he Yining listens carefully, she will find that what Jin shaosi ordered is what she likes to eat. "Absent-minded, what''s the matter?" Asked Jin shaosi. "Huh?" He Yining didn''t react at once. Seeing Jin shaosi''s slight frown, he suddenly grinned with an excited grin. He was embarrassed, "no, nothing!" Jin shaosi sighed softly, "Yining..." "Ace!" The two men spoke almost at the same time. Jin shaosi smiled, "you say it first." Why should I rather bear the corners of my mouth and endure it again? I don''t know how to speak first. A sommelier came over and recommended three wines according to the dishes ordered by Jin shaosi. Jin shaosi chose one of them. "Yes, just a moment, please." The sommelier left. Jin shaosi looked at the sommelier and said, "I contacted Tan Zhonglang. If we can agree, he will go back to the winery." "Oh..." he Yining replied casually because he was struggling with how to say to major Jin. She had no interest in wine, and she was used to it after her parents had left her for so many years. Now, hearing about some people in the winery in the past, she has lost so much attachment. After all, people always look forward "Ace," he Yining said without any modification, "Li Yunze and I are together for the time being." Jin shaosi was working on a napkin. When he Yining said this, his hand suddenly stiffened, and then he slowly raised his eyes, as if he didn''t believe what she said, and even thought he had heard something. "What did you just say?" He Yining felt a little heavy, and his inexplicable guilt lingered in his heart. "Ah Si, I''m with Li Yunze, and he said we''d try..." she didn''t dare to see Jin shaosi, lowered her eyes and whispered, "you know, I have no resistance to him." Jin shaosi''s expression gradually became deep, and his voice was gritting his teeth with forbearance. "Yining, what does it mean to try? It''s not appropriate, and then you get hurt again?" He Yining raised his eyes and looked at Jin shaosi. His mouth was already tight. "Yining, aren''t you hurt enough?" Jin shaosi asked, "do you have to toss yourself all over before you let go?" He Yining''s nose is a little sour, but he said firmly: "ace, if I have a chance to fight for it, but I shrink back because of fear, I will regret it all my life." She pulled the corners of her mouth with a slight self mockery, "I love him. It has never changed for so many years... Besides, he is still the father of one by one!" Jin shaosi only felt that his heart contracted in an instant. It was like being trampled on his heart with both hands, which made him almost unable to breathe. The phrase "yes, Dad one by one" made him lose not only at the starting line, but also at the first opportunity! "Yining..." Why rather bite the lower lip, "ah Si, don''t put your feelings on me again. I''m not worth you doing this to me..." After all, her heart can only be full of Li Yunze. "Can love a person really be measured by whether it is worth it or not?" Jin shaosi''s voice was somewhat pathetic, "what about Li Yunze? How is he worth your love?" He Yining looked at Jin shaosi and moved his mouth several times. He didn''t know how to say it. She wants to make it clear to ace, and she also hopes ace can let go of himself and give up her, but obviously... She has done nothing but hurt him. Jin shaosi''s eyes inadvertently crossed the entrance of the restaurant and watched Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei come in together. Under the guidance of the waiter, he went to the table on the other side. Jin shaosi gave a ''ha'', looked at Li Yunze and said, "Yining, are you sure that the person you want to try with you really wants to try with you?" He Yining looked at Jin shaosi incomprehensibly. Seeing that he didn''t speak, she instinctively looked with his eyes Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei were seated together. Qu Weiwei was smiling because she was right facing them. She didn''t know what she was talking to Li Yunze?! He Yining was a little numb. At this moment, his mind was empty for a moment. He didn''t know how to respond. Yesterday, he said he had something to do at noon. So he had dinner with Qu Weiwei? She has an appointment with ACE because she wants to make it clear. What about him and Qu Weiwei?! He Yining''s breath was a little short, and even she was full of confusion because of her subconscious lack of self-confidence. "I''ll go to the bathroom..." why Ning was afraid that he would be cowardly in front of Jin shaosi. He grabbed his bag and got up, so he went to the bathroom. Why would you rather sit on the toilet and keep your head up so as not to shed tears. No, Li Yunze wants to try with her. How can he still be involved with Qu Weiwei?! Certainly not. He Yining, you should be more confident. Sometimes what your eyes see may not be true. There was a cell phone ring outside, followed by a sound "It''s not easy for me to have lunch with him in the studio... I''ve been busy with him for a while now..." The intermittent voice outside came. He Yining recognized Qu Weiwei''s voice. "No way, so many years of feelings..." "After getting married, of course, I designed it myself. Our opposites must be designed by ourselves." "All right, I set a time with him for the ceremony. How can I not tell you... Well, that''s it. I''ll see you later." Why rather bite the lip, just give their own psychological construction instant collapse. Although Qu Weiwei didn''t say who that ''he'' was, do you still need to say it at the moment? Is it because Qu Weiwei has no time to accompany her, so Li Yunze came to her to try?! He Yining''s eyes kept trembling. She clutched her hands to prevent tears from falling. Qu Weiwei opened the water to wash her hands, looked at the rear toilet from the mirror, and a sneer crossed the corner of her mouth. When she came into the restaurant, she saw he Yining and Jin shaosi together. When she saw why Ning coming to the bathroom, she followed Qu Weiwei turned off the water, took out her makeup bag, made up her makeup, and turned out of the bathroom. Why Ning sat on the toilet and forgot the reaction, but her ears were full of the voice of Qu Weiwei on the phone Qu Weiwei returned to her seat, looked at Li Yunze holding her mobile phone, didn''t know what she was looking at, smiled and sat down opposite, "I just met Yining..." Li Yunze raised his eyes and wondered at the bottom of his eyes. "I came with ACE... It seems that her relationship with ACE is developing well." Qu Weiwei said with a relaxed smile, as if unintentionally, but her face gradually darkened in the depths of her sight. Chapter 1314 Li Yunze''s eyes were slightly deep, but it was only a flash that restored calm, "isn''t it?" Qu Weiwei didn''t find Li Yunze''s abnormality. She was secretly puzzled and doubted. Yunze knows, or is he indifferent to why, so incorrect! Last time I met Jin shaosi and he Yining for dinner, it was obvious that Yunze was unhappy. "Yes..." Qu Weiwei cleaned up her mood and said with a relaxed smile, "although there was some misunderstanding with Yining before, she still sincerely wished her well." "Isn''t it something?" Li Yunze opened his mouth lightly, looked at the time and said, "I still have some things in the afternoon." By implication, there is not much time. Qu Weiwei smiled, grabbed the red wine cup and slowly said, "there are a batch of jewelry to arrive in the studio, because we need to be firm about some jewelry radioactive substances. Therefore, in order to ensure the safety of appraisers, we need to be equipped with one or two doctors..." Li Yunze listened and didn''t speak, just slightly lowered his eyes and gently shook his goblet. Qu Weiwei glanced over and caught a glimpse of he Yining coming out from there. She sneered. Her body naturally leaned forward, holding her cheek on the back of her hand, smiled and said, "if you hang your name, I don''t need to find two doctors." Li Yunze raised her eyes and looked at Qu Weiwei''s cunning eyes, frowning secretly. I used to think that Qu Weiwei and he Yining had been together for a long time, and occasionally I could see a little shadow of he Yining from her For example, the cunning when flattering. He didn''t feel anything before, but at this moment, he seemed a little upset and irritable. I don''t know if it''s because I lied to him when I heard that he Yining was with Jin shaosi! "That''s it?" Li Yunze asked faintly. "Yes..." Qu Weiwei put down her hand, put her elbow slightly on the table and said with a smile, "otherwise!" Li Yunze frowned slightly and invisibly. "You can say it on the phone, can''t you?" Qu Weiwei shrugged her shoulders, raised her eyes and said, "you''re so busy and promised to invite you to dinner..." she paused. "In the past, I could accept it calmly, no matter whether we had feelings or not, at least the relationship between lovers, but now it''s different, isn''t it?!" Impeccable words, perfect and decent expression In Li Yunze''s eyes, Qu Weiwei just showed her easily because of her help. At the moment, Qu Weiwei''s expression and action fall into he Yining''s eyes. It is completely the charm of a woman in the face of her lover. Only a woman who is loved can have that light. My heart was suddenly hurt. Why would I rather hold my hand and resist some impulse in my body and go back to Jin shaosi. Jin shaosi looked at why Ning''s face was bad and sighed: "shall we have another meal?" "Yes." He Yining felt uncomfortable and nodded. After Jin shaosi called the waiter to check out, he Yining went outside Because of the position deviation and Li Yunze didn''t specifically look for it, he didn''t see Jin shaosi and he Yining from beginning to end. Jin He Ning suddenly stopped at the door. "What''s the matter?" Jin shaosi saw why he was standing still with the corners of his mouth and slightly twisted his eyebrows. He is too familiar with such Yining He Yining turned slowly and looked straight at Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei with two sharp lights At the moment, just back to Qu Weiwei, Li Yunze''s direction can be seen. Xu Shi felt this strong look, and Li Yunze subconsciously looked over and just looked at he Yining''s eyes. "Hello, give me a glass of red wine..." he Yining said with a smile and gnashing his teeth, "expensive, the most expensive!" The waiter was a little confused and looked at Mr. Jin. "Yining..." Jin shaosi knew that he Yining was too angry and lost his mind. He Yining kept his eyes on Li Yunze. "Old friends have been right for several times and always have to say hello." Jin shaosi didn''t know what he Yining would do now. Instead, he knew what she would do if she had been in the past. If it had been put ten years ago, Yining might have gone straight to lift the table. "Give it to her!" Jin shaosi motioned to the waiter. The waiter answered and hurried to pour a glass of the most expensive red wine in the restaurant, a glass of five figures! Qu Weiwei felt that Li Yunze seemed to be staring at a place for a long time and didn''t pay attention at first. After all, that direction was not the direction of Jin shaosi and he Yining''s table. However, I felt more and more wrong, and instinctively looked back at the past ''poof!'' "Ah!" The sound of water came, followed by a scream. At the moment, it is the meal point. Most of the seats in the restaurant are occupied. Qu Weiwei''s scream immediately attracted everyone''s attention. Qu Weiwei closed her eyes, endured the dripping of red wine from top to bottom for a few seconds, slowly opened her eyes, looked at he Yining with an empty glass in her hand, and tried to control the uncontrollable anger in her body. She just asked, "Yining, we haven''t seen each other for so many years. Is this the gift you gave me for the first time?" In the voice, there was obvious grievance, but I was tough and didn''t want to reveal it. At the moment, it seems that she is not a famous jewelry designer Vivian, but a very sad victim who was hurt by her friends. Li Yunze didn''t think why he would rather come over with red wine and directly poured it on Qu Weiwei''s face. He Yining and Qu Weiwei had a close relationship since childhood, just like conjoined babies, until Qu Weiwei and his class began, and gradually, there was a contradiction between the two However, in the past, Qu Weiwei always gave in to Yining, which is why he finally got together with Qu Weiwei because Yining''s more and more exaggerated practice. Even if it was angry at that time, Qu Weiwei didn''t take it seriously. "Yining, what are you doing?" Li Yunze frowned and ignored the sight of the people who looked at him. He wasn''t angry yet. She lied to him that she was in the hospital, but she came here for dinner with Mr. Jin. Instead, she was the first to get angry? He Yining looked at Qu Weiwei''s fork, sneered, looked at Li Yunze and said slowly, "Li Yunze, you can eat with such a dirty face opposite you?" Li Yunze frowned. "My heart is the best. I''m afraid you don''t have a happy lunch, so wash her face and make you happy..." he Yining looks at Qu Weiwei again. "Don''t pretend. It''s disgusting, you know?" He hummed softly. Why would he rather endure the sadness in his heart? He forced himself to pull the corners of his mouth and said, "it''s a pity to have my glass of wine." Just as he Yining''s words fell, Jin shaosi came forward in a knight''s posture, grabbed her shoulder, took the cup in her hand in the other hand and threw it on the table At the same time, Li Yunze looked at the hand on he Yining''s shoulder, and his eyes gradually burst into flames. Chapter 1315 The waiter panicked when the table became like this. He never thought why he would rather have that glass of wine to splash people The most feared thing about such a high-end restaurant is that someone "makes trouble". After all, who can come to this restaurant for dinner is not a rich man?! The manager of the restaurant has come over. He sees Li Yunze and has a headache. The manager looked at the red wine on Qu Weiwei''s face. A waiter handed her a napkin, but she didn''t take it. The whole scene was a little awkward and dignified. Li Yunze looked at Jin shaosi from his hand on he Yining''s shoulder. There was an obvious warning in the fundus of his eyes. Qu Weiwei looked at he Yining with a sad face. She was wronged, but she bore it silently. Jin shaosi has a great momentum when the sky falls. Of course, he selfishly hopes Li Yunze to defend Qu Weiwei at the moment, so... He still has a chance, doesn''t he?! "Li Shao, this is..." Li Yunze ignored the restaurant manager, but looked coldly at Mr. Jin and said, "take your hand away!" Mr. Jin didn''t move, but said slowly with a cold hum: "Li Shao, you''d better take good care of your girlfriend... After all, you''ve been splashed." He ignored everyone''s eyes and looked at why Yining. His voice was different. The indifference he had just spoken to Li Yunze was filled with some doting tenderness: "Yining, is it fun? If not, let''s continue." "Ace, you..." Qu Weiwei''s eyes suddenly turned red, and even the restaurant manager and waiter were distressed by her grievance and forbearance. "Do I know you?" Jin shaosi looked at Qu Weiwei indifferently, with a fierce look under alienation, "don''t be so kind." Qu Weiwei suddenly ''cluttered'' in her heart. The overwhelming pressure made her feel inexplicably flustered. He Yining looked at Li Yunze. At the moment, they both had a flame of anger in their eyes. "I''m afraid I''ll throw it again..." why should I rather look at it coldly without blinking? "Someone will hit me!" "With me, who can move you?" Jin shaosi spoke with awe. This desire for protection and possession makes Li Yunze listen particularly harsh. Suddenly When the atmosphere was very stalemate, Li Yunze took a step forward, suddenly pulled why Ning to his side, looked at Jin shaosi and said coldly, "I''m a woman, I don''t need you to protect..." Before he Yining could react, Li Yunze pulled him out of the restaurant "Yunze!" Qu Weiwei shouted, but she didn''t expect such a result in the end. Jin shaosi gazed slightly and looked at an angry figure. A figure who could not keep up with his steps but staggered gradually sank his eyes. "Jin shaosi, why would you rather be taken away with your eyes open?" Qu Weiwei finally asked uncontrollably after Li Yunze left the restaurant with he Yining. Jin shaosi took back his eyes. "Can you control me?" "Don''t you like her? You like her and let Li Yunze take her!" Qu Weiwei gnashed her teeth. Jin shaosi smiled, completely sarcastic. "Qu Weiwei, you''ve been like a day for ten years... If you want to climb higher, you can''t hide your inferiority complex." Looking at Qu Weiwei''s spilled red wine and her angry and distorted face, Jin shaosi said indifferently, "what I do with Yining has nothing to do with you, and what you do with Li Yunze has nothing to do with me... Don''t impose your dirty thoughts on me." After that, Jin shaosi directly handed the gold card to the waiter, only paid for the cup of wine he Ning poured. Qu Weiwei looked at her angry face with a ferocious expression. When a waiter asked her if she wanted to deal with it, she yelled "go away" and left angrily. Of course, because of Li Yunze''s relationship, the restaurant is not afraid that no one pays the bill, so it directly hangs li Yunze''s bill. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze drove very fast, and his face hung down. He Yining was also angry. It was rare to feel guilty or afraid without seeing Li Yunze''s appearance. He was also cold, didn''t look at him, and looked out of the car. Such a speed is not a problem for he Yining... After all, she used to go crazy a lot and the speed was not slow. But because several events around her are related to car accidents, her potential scalp is a little numb. "Squeak -" The screeching sound of brakes came from the deserted road in the suburbs. The tires rubbed the asphalt and pulled out a mark. He Yining was unprepared. If it wasn''t for the seat belt, he almost hit the workbench Li Yunze didn''t see why Yining. His hand was still holding the steering wheel. There was all turbidity in his eyes. The narrow space inside the car is full of dignified and breathless. Silence, at this moment, makes such repression more heavy. He Yining bit his lower lip and his eyes were slightly red. She didn''t say anything. She untied her seat belt, got out of the car, threw the door... At one go. At the moment when he Yining''s door slammed on, Li Yunze also got out of the car, took a few steps, pulled back he Yining, who was angry to leave, and directly pressed him down on the car "Go away!" Why rather go crazy to push Li Yunze? The whole person''s mood is on the verge of collapse. Li Yunze also completely let himself go and didn''t control his temper. He roared directly, "he Yining, why don''t you say it when you have lunch with major Jin at noon?" "Then why didn''t you tell me when you had dinner with Qu Weiwei?" He Yining also roared, and the posture seemed to be more than his voice, "Li Yunze, you and she are so unclear, don''t provoke me?!" "I don''t know..." Li Yunze sneered. "Is it me or you and Jin shaosi?" Hearing him slander himself like this, why should Ning be so angry, "yes, I just don''t know how it is. It''s better than you and Qu Weiwei!" "He Yining..." "Li Yunze!" "..." Li Yunze can really be angry with why Yining. "When did I break ties with her? She and I are clear..." he snorted coldly, "why Yining, dare you say that you and Jin shaosi are also clear?" "Why don''t I dare..." why should Ning roar, "I''ve never had anything. What dare I not? It''s you. Are you clear with Qu Weiwei, or are you in two boats? Only you know!" At that time, she was in the bathroom. Qu Weiwei went behind her. How could she know she was there? Qu Weiwei''s phone call was clearly told by Li Yunze "Since you and Jin shaosi have nothing, why didn''t you say it when I texted you?" Li Yunze also lost his mind, "he Yining, dare you say you''re not guilty?" Chapter 1316 He Yining was roared by Li Yunze and forgot his reaction. The corners of his mouth moved back and forth several times. He simply had no backbone and said, ''she has no guilty heart''! "Look, you are guilty!" Li Yunze looked at he Yining and said, "I don''t feel guilty between Qu Weiwei and me..." he paused, with a touch of complex emotion in his eyes, "he Yining, no matter what I did to you before, now that I want to try with you, I haven''t thought about how to do with other women!" "You..." "I don''t care what you''re thinking in your subjective consciousness..." Li Yunze interrupted he Yining, "but you remember that I don''t play with emotional things!" Words are almost squeezed out of the biting teeth. Li Yunze locked his eyes tightly without blinking. Every word was telling her his attitude towards feelings. What if he doesn''t sleep with he Yining? In today''s era, he doesn''t think he must be responsible under such circumstances... Although this idea is a little scum. However, he wanted to have a try with he Yining, just because he did have some ideas about her in his heart now. "At least, when I''m with others, I won''t try with you..." Li Yunze''s voice is a little hoarse because of holding back his anger. "And when I try with you, I won''t do with other women, okay?!" Li Yunze gnashed his teeth and threw out the last two words. He Yining let go. He Yining''s heart was trembling at the moment, and she even red eyes. She has suffered from Qu Weiwei many times. She clearly sees through Qu Weiwei''s green tea psychology, but... Because she has no confidence in Li Yunze, she is still controlled, isn''t she?! Or, at that time, Qu Weiwei was not talking about Li Yunze at all, but she subconsciously imposed it on Li Yunze. "Yining..." Li Yunze shouted weakly. "Yes!" He Yining, like a child who did something wrong, hung his eyes and answered. "Although I will not be male chauvinist, because you are with me, it will affect your friendship." Li Yunze leaned on the car body and rubbed his eyebrows. "But I don''t want you to have an affair with a man, do you understand?" "I have nothing to do with him..." why Ning Chui Mou said, "I didn''t tell you, just afraid of meeting..." Thinking of this, he Yining is very depressed. She raised her eyes, glanced at Li Yunze, and said, "I''m afraid to tell you what you''ll think, and I''m afraid to say you don''t want anything. How depressed am I?" He Yining said at the end, his voice was like a mosquito humming, and the whole nerve was tangled. Li Yunze looked sideways at he Yining. When she said so, he naturally believed it. It''s not why he can see through at a glance, but his reflex instinct to her. Li Yunze smiled and felt that when he lived to such a big age, he could still quarrel with a Lengtou boy. I''m afraid it''s time to face he Yining. Beichen said before that many emotions in his body can be aroused, which should be thanked by he Yining "Hungry, eat!" Li Yunze said, opened the door, pulled why Ning, and motioned her to get on the bus. He Yining glanced at him and got into the car obediently. After getting on the bus, Li Yunze asked, "where to eat?" Paused, "no, why do you have time to go to diamond star so far away from Shuya at noon?" "I take turns this afternoon." Why would you rather explain yourself. "Ha ha!" Li Yunze directly replied to her with a sneer and asked, "it seems that the so-called appointment with Fang Zihan in the evening is also false!" "That''s true!" Why should I hasten to deny it. Although I went to pick up one by one, I also made an appointment with Zihan and Yanyan to go home for dinner and explain the progress of these two days. Li Yunze looked at he Yining, did not continue to tangle with this problem, but just started the car. "Hey, what''s your attitude? Don''t you believe it?" Li Yunze took a look at he Yining and still didn''t speak. He Yining can''t guess what Li Yunze thinks at the moment. He simply doesn''t believe it with him. Calm down, he Yining thought about being dragged away by Li Yunze. Jin shaosi must be worried. If she wants to send him a text message, she is afraid that she will not rest assured after quarreling with Li Yunze. Young secretary Jin is always suspected of giving Li Yunze eye medicine "I''ll go with you in the evening!" Li Yunze suddenly threw out a sentence. "Ah?!" He Yining didn''t hear clearly and looked at Li Yunze driving in doubt. Li Yunze glanced at her indifferently and repeated, "I''ll go to dinner with you in the evening." "..." why did Ning twitch at the corners of his mouth. "Why not?" Why did Ning zhe look at Li Yunze without blinking? For a moment, her heart was complex. Choose the day as the collision day?! Can we expose them one by one today? He Yining thought quickly in his mind whether it was a feasible decision. Just quarreled with Li Yunze. Although they didn''t reach the trust of their lover, he was willing to explain his relationship with Qu Weiwei to her. Is this a very benign development? If so, the one-to-one exposure is sooner or later, not to mention that Beichen already knows He Yining thought that if it weren''t for Jian Mo''s accident, I''m afraid Gu Beichen had told Li Yunze one by one. Did not say, just because Jane Mo''s departure and grandma Gu''s subsequent death. "Why not?" Li Yunze asked. He didn''t believe why Ning had an appointment with Fang Zihan at night, but he felt that since two people wanted to try, they couldn''t try secretly. After all, unmarried men and unmarried women, under normal communication, shouldn''t each other''s circle of friends brush their sense of existence?! "No..." why Ning clenched his hand, "well, let''s go together in the evening." Li Yunze raised the corners of his mouth slightly with satisfaction, and there was a proud "um" sound in his throat. He Yining decided to meet Li Yunze one by one, and his heart began to jump. Sitting in the car, imagining the scene of father and daughter meeting, why can''t you help laughing at the corners of your mouth. One by one, when she comes back to Los Angeles, the first handsome millet to praise is her father. What will it be like? Will Li Yunze be surprised? Will you be angry that she secretly gave birth to her daughter after sleeping with him, or will you forget yourself happily?! One question after another crossed her mind. She was looking forward to and afraid of the coming of the night. The uneasiness and joy made her feel at a loss. "What are you laughing at?" Li Yunze said coldly. Chapter 1317 He Yining looked at Li Yunze, raised his eyebrows and said, "I won''t tell you!" "Who wants it?" Li Yunze hummed in his nose, but his mouth was filled with a faint smile. Years no longer, but he Yining at the moment showed him the cunning at that time. He Yining takes a look at Li Yunze from time to time. Sometimes he will be caught by him, and then deliberately pretends to be careless and looks out of the car He Yining''s heart is sweet at the moment. She feels sweet at the moment because of the other party''s lying to herself or the quarrel of the opposite sex. What''s more, after the two quarreled, they didn''t continue to be angry, and they could get along with sweet taste in the air The most important thing is that in the evening, I will meet Li Yunze one by one! Will Li Yunze not recognize one by one as his daughter? After all, most of them are still like her. Why would you rather lean on the car seat and look at the passing street view outside the window? Many possibilities have been flashed in your mind. Of course, what I hope most is Li Yunze and 11, because they like each other by nature. The most frightening thing is, will Li Yunze think it is someone else''s child because she suddenly finds out that she has a daughter?! After all, when he slept with her in Nanhai, he seemed stunned for a moment because she didn''t have that film. ¡­¡­ Qu Weiwei left the restaurant and went straight home. In the bathroom, the heat was rising and the mirror was covered with water mist. Qu Weiwei took the mirror wiping paper and drew an arc on it. The mirror reflected her delicate face because of careful care. "He Yining, don''t think you can still go back to your past life if you have shaosi Jin..." Qu Weiwei thought of the red wine splashed in public, and her face gradually became ferocious. "I''d like to see how long you and Li Yunze can be together!" Gnashing her teeth, she showed her crazy anger. Under the curling heat, Qu Weiwei''s face was like a ghost in the gradually hazy mirror. I don''t know how long it took Qu Weiwei to gradually suppress the rising anger. She wiped her body, went out of the bathroom and changed her clothes. In front of the mirror, she is full of the charm of a capable woman at the moment. Qu Weiwei looked at herself in the mirror with satisfaction. After a trace of disdain for he Yining, she turned and left the apartment. When the talent got off the elevator and got on the bus, Qu Weiwei''s phone rang. Qu Weiwei took it out and saw that it was a strange number. She couldn''t help feeling a little confused. Ignored, Qu Weiwei directly hung up, threw her mobile phone into her bag, started the car and went to the studio The phone rang again. Qu Weiwei took it out and glanced at the number she had just called. Qu Weiwei hung up her Bluetooth headset and turned it on. Her voice was cold and arrogant without any emotion and asked, "who is it?" On the other side of the phone, no one spoke. Qu Weiwei frowned slightly, "who? Don''t talk and hang up..." "Weiwei, it''s me..." On the phone, there was a voice with a trace of hoarseness under the vicissitudes of life, better like the excitement of reunion after a long separation. Qu Weiwei''s pupils suddenly expanded, and the corners of her mouth began to tremble. Even there was a trace of resistance in the fundus of her eyes. "You, why do you have my phone?" Qu Weiwei''s voice is different from each other''s excitement, obviously because of the trembling under the refusal. The other party was silent for a few seconds, then slowly said: "I overheard..." paused, "well, do you have time, I want to see you." Qu Weiwei looked at the roadside and then turned to the temporary parking space. Her breathing was obviously not smooth. She closed her eyes and tried her best to make her voice smoother. "Well, I''m a little busy recently because the studio has just opened..." "Oh, so!" The other party''s voice was a little lost, "then wait until you''re finished!" Qu Weiwei breathed a sigh of relief. "By the way, do you know that ACE is back?" Qu Weiwei suddenly frowned and listened to the other party say, "he seems to have taken back his winery and vineyard and has the intention to ask me back to be a winemaker." Qu Weiwei suddenly widened her eyes and wanted to say something, but the corners of her mouth trembled too much to say anything. "What, when?" Qu Weiwei asked. "I have an appointment tomorrow, but I don''t really want to go back..." Qu Weiwei''s heart suddenly pulled up. She swallowed secretly, pulled the corners of her mouth and said, "well... I''m driving. I''ll have time later. Let''s talk again." "Well, ok..." Tan Zhonglang answered, "this is my number. Call me when you have time." "Good!" Qu Weiwei answered and hung up. She began to breathe heavily, and some memories of resistance began to flood her. "Dang Dang!" Qu Weiwei heard the voice and looked at it subconsciously. I saw a traffic policeman standing by the car. She quickly put down the window. "Hello," the traffic policeman saluted, "this is a temporary parking space. You have exceeded the time limit. Please leave immediately." "Huh? Oh... Oh, I see. I''m sorry!" Qu Weiwei answered in a trance and hurriedly started the car to leave. However, because of Tan Zhonglang''s phone call, her face has not eased ¡­¡­ Why do you prefer to pull the handrail ring of the subway and look at it? Because when you go through the darkness, your figure is reflected on the glass and sighs secretly. Having thought about everything, I can''t stand an "accident" in the end. Originally planned to expose one by one in front of Li Yunze tonight, but who knows, Li Yunze was called away by the general manager of the army. Thinking of this, why should I rather feel more heavy. It seems that the only way for Lin Lao''s condition is surgery. However, it is not a very high success rate, which makes people feel at ease. He Yining listened to the sound of reporting the station and moved to the door. Maybe today is not the best time to expose one by one. I don''t know if she can bring one by one to Li Yunze without thinking about anything next time?! I don''t know whether this missed meeting is good or bad?! Why would you rather get off the subway and walk to the kindergarten. She is struggling here, but Li Yunze has no time to think about others. Originally, he thought he could be treated conservatively, but today''s sudden situation, he and several doctors of the general military administration have studied it, and it is clear that surgery will be put on the agenda. "The Central Military Commission and the Standing Committee attach great importance to the operation of Lin Lao," said the general military doctor. "The first chief also made a statement. There is not much left by the old revolution now. Lin Lao''s operation should be carried out by setting up a special operation team." Li Yunze didn''t speak, but looked at the cases in these two days again. "I suggested with the No. 1 chief that you carry out the main knife, and I agreed." Li Yunze still didn''t speak, but an idea crossed his mind. He raised his eyes and said to general doctor Jun, "I''ll take Dr. he Yining, Shuya, as my deputy. You decide the rest of the team." Chapter 1318 "Why do you prefer?" In the conference room, a doctor with two cents on her shoulder badge whispered and then twisted her eyebrows. "I''ve heard of her. Although she has good grades in school and has studied for several years, she seems to be a doctor of general surgery? Is it inappropriate to participate in Lin Lao''s operation at such a level?" Li Yunze smiled, a very shallow smile, but with irresistible force. "I said," Li Yunze''s voice was slow, "I will take her as a deputy. The rest of the team members will be decided by the general manager of the army." In a word, it clearly expressed his decision. This person is what he wants to take, and the group has no right to intervene. The main knife is Li Yunze. Coupled with his relationship with old Lin''s grandson Lin Nannan, people here will not doubt that he joked about old Lin''s life. However, for such an operation valued by the No. 1 chief, it is indeed unreasonable to arrange a doctor who is only in general surgery to come in. But Li Yunze didn''t think so. First of all, in the last academic exchange, why would she rather keep up with the progress of his operation? She even knows what he needs without him saying. This is a favorable tacit understanding for the operation. In addition... This operation can improve the popularity of he Yining. Doctors also need popularity. Of course, Li Yunze has other selfishness. He thinks he Yining is more suitable for surgery than obstetrics and Gynecology... Although he also knows that interest is important. Several doctors of the general manager of the army looked at each other. Finally, the chief doctor nodded, and the people no longer made objections. Operation time, pre operation preparation and operation needs It was already eleven o''clock in the middle of the night when these problems were completely decided. Li Yunze came out of the military general hospital and wanted to call he Yining, but he gave up when he saw the time. The next morning, Li Yunze dialed he Yining when he came out of home Li Ze was glad to see him off one by one when he entered the kindergarten. "Are you at work?" Li Yunze opened the door and got on the bus. "I''m going to the hospital..." why did Ning Dun ask, "how''s grandpa Lin?" "Surgery will be arranged in the near future, and conservative treatment will not work." Li Yunze sighed, "I''ll go to your hospital after I go back to the hospital." "Well?" He Yining doesn''t understand. "Old Lin attaches great importance to the operation and will set up an operation team. Come and be my deputy." Although Li Yunze said very calmly, there was an obvious meaning of inquiry in his tone. "Me?" Why did Ning stop, because he was surprised and looked surprised. After all, at her level, she really can''t get into such an operation team. "Last time you cooperated with me very smoothly. Old Lin must fight with time at his age." Li Yunze paused and said slowly, "moreover, with grandma Gu''s death, I think you will want to help Lin Changyi. In addition, I also want you to have this operation." He Yining''s heart was moved and trembled. As Li Yunze said, it is really a happy thing for her to save grandpa Lin''s life. "Of course, the most important thing is to see your will." Although he Yining hoped to enter the operation team and promote her, he didn''t want to force her. "I''d like to..." why Ning said hurriedly, his nose is a little sour, "Li Yunze, thank you." Li Yunze smiled, with the comfort of his woman''s dependence on him. "You go to work first. I''ll go back and find President Ma..." Li Yunze fastened his seat belt. "Be careful on the road." "Yes." Why Ning zhe answered with a smile. After hanging up the phone, the steps to the hospital became much happier. Li Yunze drove to the hospital. Half the way, his mobile phone rang. He picked it up, listened to the eager voice inside, his pupils widened slightly, and hurriedly said, "I''ll be there in a minute!" ¡­¡­ The news outside is overwhelming. Recently, it has been basically occupied by the emperor group. From the "death" of Jian Mo to the death of grandma Gu, to the intensification of the contradiction between Gu Beichen and Gu mohuai, and the plot of God reversal, Jian Mo''s brother Jian Heng is Gu Moyuan''s illegitimate son. When he joined the emperor''s board of directors, it made the original situation of Gu Beichen more unpredictable. At this time, Chu Zixiao, who held 5% of the shares of emperor group, had a serious car accident on the way to sign the equity transfer of emperor group. After rescue, although he survived, he also became a vegetable. Li Yunze''s surgical suit hasn''t been taken off. After comforting Gu Beichen for a while, he is in an abnormal dignified mood. "I''m fine." Gu Beichen''s angular handsome face is so indifferent that he can''t see any emotion. Li Yunze looked at him like this and sighed secretly. Since Beichen came back from the Mo palace, he has changed his temper. No matter how much pressure, he is only stuffy in his heart "Go and change your clothes. I''ll go to ICU and have a look." Li Yunze nodded, went to tidy up and called he Yining first. "I saw the news, but now it''s gone..." he Yining was also dignified. "How''s he? But there should be no problem with your automatic operation." "Well, not bad." Li Yunze didn''t specifically say, "the news Beichen has been suppressed. I probably can''t get through today. You remember to eat after work, mainly to go home!" Why should I rather curl my lips, "what else can I do if I don''t go home?" "Who knows? I don''t know who to go to any western restaurant with!" Li Yunze''s tone was sour. He Yining smiled, "Hey, you won''t be jealous?!" "Is it strange?" Li Yunze didn''t understand, "if you have a dinner date with other men, I don''t respond, is it strange "That''s right..." he Yining was warm in his heart. "I''ll go home after work. Well, I won''t let other men into the house!" Why Ning Gan said this is entirely because he knows that Jin shaosi has something to do tonight. Of course, Jin shaosi came home to find her. In fact, she had no reason not to let people in "Well, the answer is quite satisfactory." Li Yunze looked slightly relaxed. Of course, he Yining knew that the ingredient of comforting him was. ¡­¡­ The night, as always beautiful, will never change because of what happened to some people. Looking at Jin Zhonglang, he hasn''t changed a bit in the past ten years. Unlike Jin shaosi''s cold and arrogant lack of speech at the beginning, Tan Zhonglang is completely introverted and dare not speak. "If min should have told you, I hope you can come back." Jin shaosi spoke. Tan Zhonglang looked at Jin shaosi, who was different from the past, lowered his eyes and said, "it''s not from any family. How can you call ''back''?" "Yes!" Tan Zhonglang raised his eyes in doubt. "I bought the winery and vineyard in a private name, and then transferred it to Yining''s name..." Jin shaosi said, "so, it''s back!" Tan Zhonglang was obviously surprised. Although the winery and vineyard are not as famous as before, it''s also a big number. Ace gave it to the young lady like this?! But on second thought, there was nothing unexpected. Love is unreasonable. "Alan, can you tell me now, would you like to come back?" Asked Jin shaosi. Tan Zhonglang drooped his eyes and couldn''t help crossing over what Qu Weiwei said when she called him this morning Chapter 1319 "Alan, it''s good to go back. Don''t you have a special preference for wine making?" Qu Weiwei said. "But..." Tan Zhonglang was tempted to stop, "but at the beginning..." "A Lang," Qu Weiwei suddenly frowned and interrupted Tan Zhonglang, "I don''t want to mention the previous things." Tan Zhonglang twitched slightly at the corner of his mouth and swallowed his words back. Qu Weiwei was a little upset. "Forget it, you decide for yourself. I''m still busy here!" "Weiwei, when can we meet?" Tan Zhonglang asked hurriedly. "Go back. I''ll call you when I see the time." "Oh... OK!" Tan Zhonglang answered angrily, listening to the hang up tone in her mobile phone, and couldn''t guess what Qu Weiwei meant. "A Lang?" Jin shaosi shouted. "Well?" Tan Zhonglang suddenly withdrew from his thoughts, looked at Jin shaosi and said, "that... I, I haven''t thought about it clearly." "I can give you time." Jin shaosi opened his mouth and said, "you know the procedure of He Jia''s wine making. The grape fermentation method I studied with you was interrupted because I left. If I can, I hope to continue." As soon as Tan Zhonglang heard it, an urgent light flashed in his eyes. He is born with a tongue that can taste wine, and has a crazy love for wine making. After the he family fell down, he left, just because it was no longer a place where he could play freely, nor was it a place where he could stay in the wine cellar every day without bothering. "Alang, if I don''t have the responsibility I have to face, in fact, I want to stay in the vineyard..." Jin shaosi gently twisted the goblet, his eyes fell on the scarlet liquor, and said slowly, "now think about it, it was the simplest and purest at that time." Tan Zhonglang''s heart trembled because of Jin shaosi''s words. In the past, he Tianshu was a wine addict and a casual person. At that time, as long as you have talent, you can get the greatest training He is, and so is ace! Tan Zhonglang''s eyes are a little red. Over the years, he hasn''t been happy for a moment. It seems that there is always something pressing in his heart, which makes him unable to breathe. Jin shaosi raised his eyes to tan Zhonglang, sighed and said, "think about it, think about it and call me directly..." Then he took out his business card and handed it to tan Zhonglang. "I''m waiting for your news." Tan Zhonglang looked at his business card. ASI, who had no name, is now a figure in Brunei. Even in other countries, he occasionally appears in financial news. But no matter what your status and status are now, you haven''t changed your thoughts about where you were in the past "Good!" Tan Zhonglang seemed determined to look at Jin shaosi, "I agree to come back." Jin shaosi smiled and stretched out his hand, "alang, welcome back." ¡­¡­ Because of what happened to Chu Zixiao, why Ning? She hasn''t seen Li Yunze these days except that the next day after the incident, Li Yunze came to Shuya and Ma Guangming to talk about the operation team. When he Yining was about to leave work, he Yining listened to several doctors in the office discussing things about the Emperor "I don''t know who will rise or fall in the end?" "I think Gu Beichen should be able to hold down. After all, the emperor has been in his hands for so many years. I feel that Gu mohuai''s people have long been kicked out of the core by him." "But in the current form, it''s hard to say..." "There are only three men in gynecology. Can you stop talking about these things every day? Who is the emperor in charge of the family? I think you are still worried about being employed by the Emperor..." A woman doctor began to make complaints about the disease. The three men immediately fought back with dissatisfaction. Everyone changed from the emperor''s gossip to a professional confrontation. Why would you rather smile and watch everyone quarrel? I also think it''s very interesting Men become doctors in obstetrics and gynecology. Although it''s not strange now, why should they rather not figure out why men like to be obstetricians and gynecology?! Thinking, he Yining took his mobile phone and sent a text message to Li Yunze: Li Yunze, you are proficient in God and mind, and other departments have also been involved. I''m curious, can you do obstetrics and gynecology? Li Yunze just checked Chu Zixiao again. When he left the ward, his mobile phone rang in his pocket. He took it out, opened the text message and replied: I didn''t get involved. I don''t understand why men go to obstetrics and Gynecology! Why should I rather see it? I burst out laughing. I didn''t think Li Yunze had an idea with her. He Yining''s reply: wait, I''ll always be better than you. Li Yunze raised his eyebrow: you seem to have forgotten the meaning of the word "talent" again. Why did nington stare and grin at the mobile phone screen: let me know what can you do?! Li Yunze replied: Well, it''s for you, so I didn''t study gynecology. He Yining looked at the answer and was convinced: Yes, everything you said is reasonable! Li Yunze''s expression can appear in her mind with each short message of he Yining. It turns out that she is used to going deep into your thinking. Is that such a feeling? Li Yunze smiled, opened the office door and replied: remember to go home and eat after work "Head nurse, I feel more and more that Li Shao has been coquettish recently." A nurse looked at Li Yunze with a smile on her face and said. The head nurse nodded approvingly. The nurse looked at Li Yunze''s back as he entered the office and said with a sigh, "Li Shao has a crazy face. It turned out to be handsome to a new height..." Li Yunze didn''t find the little nurses looking at him from beginning to end. He just looked at the text messages sent. He suddenly remembered why he would rather grumble about how he would get fat if he ate too much at night. He edited another text message in the past: when I''m free these days, I''ll match you with a nutritious meal... Well, a nutritious meal that won''t get fat and can meet my stomach. He Yining looked at the text message. He was so sweet that he was filled with pink bubbles all over his body. "Is Dr. he in love?" "I look like it too. I often laugh alone with my mobile phone..." "And my experience, Dr. he''s smiling, is definitely in love." "Doctor he works well and is beautiful. Isn''t it strange that he doesn''t have a boyfriend?" "Also..." The people in the office were laughing and whispering, while he Yining, who fell into the honey pot, didn''t find that she was the protagonist of their gossip at the moment. What is the concept of having an omnipotent and talented doctor boyfriend? That is, you lose weight many times happier than others Because you don''t need to try the pain of dieting or resist the temptation of delicious food. Why Ning Zhe''s lips, thought for a while, sent a text message with a nervous and nervous mood and asked: Li Yunze, do you like children? Chapter 1320 Li Yunze looked at he Yining''s text message, and the corners of his mouth unconsciously spilled a shallow smile. He leaned against the window, the sunset penetrated the glass, and his warm smile was with a touch of urgency under pondering. Li Yunze asked with a soft smile in his mouth: why, do you want to give me one? Why Ning mouth because the smile has become an arc: guess? Li Yunze slowly put down his hand, looked at the green plants outside, and his smile deepened. Beichen has a little hero. He is more than a month older than Beichen, but his wife is still in the "try" stage It seems that he has to work harder! ¡­¡­ In the evening, the sunset gradually disappeared behind the rows of high-rise buildings, and occasionally a few strands of naughty passed through the gap between the buildings... But the large area rendered the sky red. In the garden pavilion of Huakang hospital, several beer cans and some fast food are placed on the stone table. Li Yunze frowned slightly as he listened to Gu Beichen''s plan to the emperor and find Shi Shaoqin. He was not surprised to solve the emperor''s problem in five days, but he was worried about Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin is a pervert. Now he has Jian Mo in his hand, which is a great constraint for Beichen. "If I stay here for a day, I''m afraid Mo''er will hurt more..." Gu Beichen closed his tired eyes, "Yunze, I can''t sleep well even if I take sleeping pills these days." "That''s the same sentence..." Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen and said, "no matter what decision you make, brother... Is by your side." Li Yunze raised the beer can and touched Gu Beichen. The two were drinking and eating in the afterglow of the sunset, as if nothing had happened and as wanton as the green years. Li Yunze didn''t tell Gu Beichen about him and he Yining. Beichen is tired of getting a lot of things together now. He''d better solve this by himself and share it with his brother when it''s complete. ¡­¡­ Tan Zhonglang couldn''t believe what had changed. The Qu Weiwei in front of him was the Qu Weiwei from where he lived before. "What drink?" Qu Weiwei asked after ordering. Tan Zhonglang ordered a bottle of red wine according to Qu Weiwei''s order, and the sommelier immediately looked appreciative. "Few customers can match the wine so accurately..." the sommelier asked with a smile. "You should know wine very well." Tan Zhonglang nodded at the corners of his mouth as an answer. The sommelier and the waiter who ordered the meal didn''t stop much. After saying "later", they both left. Tan Zhonglang is a little cramped. He hasn''t seen him for many years. He left the wine industry, that is, he worked around as a casual worker. Qu Weiwei, now she has removed the label of he servant''s child and become a famous private jewelry designer. Tan Zhonglang, who was already introverted, is a little uneasy in the face of Qu Weiwei, who is like a queen. "Did you agree to ace''s invitation?" Qu Weiwei asked knowingly. Tan Zhonglang nodded, pulled at the corners of his mouth and said, "yes, yes......" after a pause, he took the water aside and drank it before he said, "I have feelings for who family and the vineyard, you know." Qu Weiwei said "Hmm" and was not surprised that Tan Zhonglang would go back. The meal and wine came up soon. Tan Zhonglang sobered up himself. Qu Weiwei had a lot of knowledge about wine, which Tan Zhonglang told her before. Later, she was very useful in the upper class circle. No one will drink wine Baijiu and beer, but only to hold the goblet and taste wine to enhance their mutual interests and feelings. "Where do you live now?" Qu Weiwei asked. "The house I rented in Lanhai community..." Tan Zhonglang blushed slightly. Qu Weiwei didn''t mean to laugh, but asked, "my friend has a house that is just empty. People go abroad and probably won''t come back in recent years. Why don''t you go and live..." before Tan Zhonglang spoke, she continued, "just pay the hydropower property yourself." "No," Tan Zhonglang shook his head in embarrassment. "I have promised ace to go back to the vineyard. I am familiar with and convenient to live there." "Oh, I forgot." Qu Weiwei smiled and raised her glass in disapproval. She gently touched the cup with Tan Zhonglang, took a shallow drink and turned off the topic. They had a meal and talked about nothing more than writing irrelevant things. But some things, if they don''t talk to each other, are also a thorn in each other''s hearts, which can''t suddenly disappear. "I still remember when he family didn''t fall down before, everything was so happy and simple..." Qu Weiwei tilted her head slightly with one hand holding her cheek, and her voice was a little secluded. Tan Zhonglang also remembered the past and was silent. "The day the master and his wife had a car accident..." Qu Weiwei said and suddenly paused. Tan Zhonglang looked at Qu Weiwei curiously. Seeing that she didn''t intend to say anything, he asked curiously, "what''s the matter?" "Nothing." Qu Weiwei put down her hand and lowered her eyes, "it''s all over..." She sighed and took a sip of red wine. Under the light, there was a faint melancholy on her delicate face. Tan Zhonglang looked at her in this way. Some forbearance and deep emotions overflowed in her eyes, but there was some doubt in her heart. What is Qu Weiwei''s desire to talk and stop?! ¡­¡­ He Yining told me bedtime stories one by one. One by one suddenly fanned his eyes and asked, "Mom, I find you come to pick up one by one every day these days." "Well, what''s the matter?" He Yining looked puzzled. But one by one tooted his mouth, "don''t you have to go on a date?" She asked, frowning. "Or, mom, are you lovelorn so soon?" "What do you think every day, you little head?" He Yining gently nodded his forehead and said with a smile, "that uncle is a little busy at work, so my mother hasn''t seen him these days." "Oh..." answered one by one. "Well, go to bed!" "Well, good night, mom!" "Good night, baby!" Why rather cling to the body, give 11 a good night kiss, then darken the wall lamp and leave 11''s small bedroom. At the moment when the door closed, he opened his eyes one by one, wrinkled his nose and muttered, "I haven''t seen uncle Si for several days. Are you busy?" One by one, the kid sighed, "I''m a child. I''m really broken by my mother." Then the little girl closed her eyes again and fell asleep after a while. Why would you rather lie on the fence of the balcony and look at the quiet overflow community? The dim night lights only leave light and shadow in a very small range. From a distance, they look like fireflies. He Yining''s thoughts stagnated and fell on the distant light, and his sight gradually lost focus Next time, do you want to take Li Yunze to pick up one by one from school?! Chapter 1321 Gu Beichen dealt with the emperor with lightning speed, which was expected for the outside world. Gu Beichen has "controlled" the emperor for so many years. If Gu mohuai can still seize power, he is a mythical figure in Los Angeles. After Gu Beichen handled the emperor''s affairs, he left Los Angeles quietly Today, Lin Nanan has left the army because of Su Xiaoxiao''s "abandonment", and may not be able to come back once a year. Because of the warmth, the Dragon owl basically stayed in the seaside city, but occasionally he would come back to Los Angeles to have a look. Gu Beichen, while planning strategies, wants to plan ahead. Under the competition of life and death, he is just a simple foam Li Yunze took his pocket with one hand and stood on the roof of the hospital with a cup of coffee in his other hand. His eyes fell into the distance at will. Three people, all for love. And what about him?! Li Yunze''s mind crossed the figure of he Yining, and the corners of his mouth were uncontrollable, so he raised a shallow smile. That kind of smile, too much from the heart, so that it is particularly charming in the sun. Anyway, now there is Jian Mo in the north, the Dragon boss is warm, and he Yining... It''s just going south. In the future, the gathering of four brothers can also be changed into a gathering of four families. It''s nice. Li Yunze raised his hand and took a sip of coffee. The already cool coffee tastes fishy and bitter, but when it crosses Li Yunze''s taste buds, it is mellow, sweet and smooth. Li Yunze put the coffee cup on the fence table, took out his mobile phone and dialed he Yining''s number He Yining is reading a book. She usually has a heavy heart to play. Generally, she can''t do things very well. When she can get through six or seven points, she stops. However, once she really decides what to do, she will do it well and seriously. For example, when she decided to apply to medical college, she spent three months working hard before the college entrance examination, and finally entered the medical department of Luoda. Now she wants to transfer, she wants to improve her professional title and ability to the greatest extent Seeing Li Yunze''s phone, he Yining read a book, blinked and answered: "didn''t you say there was an operation in the afternoon? Why do you still have time to call?" Li Yunze heard he Yining''s voice, and his smile slightly increased. "I''ll enter the operating room in half an hour..." he paused. "Today''s operation is a little complicated. It''s estimated that it will be very late." By implication, he can''t have dinner with her. "I''ll go to the library after work," he Yining said. "Then I''ll go home. Well, I''ll remember to eat before I go to the library." Li Yunze had just wanted to explain, but he Yining''s hurried explanation turned him into a smile. "Call me after your operation?" He Yining asked. "It will be too late..." "It''s all right. I have to read books for a while." Why rather afraid that Li Yunze felt too late and didn''t want to disturb her, he hurried to say the reason, "I want to go back to Grandpa Lin''s operation and take the intermediate professional title examination first." Li Yunze did not object to why he would rather read books and take the professional title examination. He thought she was good and knew that many things could be obtained only through his own efforts. "Well, good." Li Yunze said with a touch of emotion between lovers in his voice, "I''ll call you when I''m finished." "Yes." "Hang up, I''ll go down and prepare." "OK..." he Yining hung up the phone, but stared at the mobile phone for a long time. The two people decided to start the relationship, except for the intimacy a few days ago. These days, due to the emergence of various things, they have less opportunities to meet, and more phone calls and text messages. He Yining was a little lost, but he couldn''t say the sweetness in his heart. Li Yunze has her in his heart slowly, that''s enough. Someone cares every day, and someone reminds me when I eat. It turns out... It''s such a happy feeling. Why Ning smiled and couldn''t wait to share Li Yunze and with each other one by one. "Dr. he..." The door of the office was pushed open, and a doctor in the same office came in. "Dr. Liu asked for leave tomorrow. In the morning, director Yang of her clinic said to let you replace him. Dr. Liu will replace you later." "OK." Why should I answer. Seeing the clinic can get some knowledge quickly. Although it is very complicated and cumbersome, he Yining is still more willing. When it was time to get off work, he Yining had just packed up his things and was ready to pick them up. He got up and his mobile phone rang. He Yining took it out. Seeing that it was Jin shaosi''s, he grabbed the corner of his mouth and picked it up, "ah Si?" "I''m in the hospital parking lot. Let''s pick up one by one..." Jin shaosi said. He Yining walked outside and wanted to refuse, but he felt that he was too deliberate. Although there is no real pure friendship between men and women, Jin shaosi is different for he Yining. She thought that as long as she can keep the ambiguous behavior from happening, she should be able to express her position. After getting on the bus, why should I rather be a little strange: "why did you suddenly come here?" "Passing by, look at the time. You''re almost off work. I''ll pick you up." Jin shaosi explained with a smile, "moreover, I haven''t seen one by one for several days. I want to be a little girl." He Yining saw that Jin shaosi was not special, and didn''t want to do it too deliberately because of those thoughts in his heart. "Wait for dinner. I have a surprise." Jin shaosi looked at he Yining''s face, which couldn''t hide his mind at all. He sighed slightly in his heart, but his face didn''t show it. He Yining looked at Jin shaosi curiously, "it seems that you won''t say it at the moment." "Of course!" Jin shaosi smiled. Why should I rather curl my lips and deliberately sigh a long sigh, as if whispering: "I''m going to take one by one to the library. Am I expecting a surprise? Or did I plan to go to the library?" Listening to why Yining''s careful thinking, Jin shaosi''s smile deepened. Looking at her eyes, he was filled with a touch of helpless joy. Yining is obviously lively these days and gradually returns to his previous temperament. Is it because of Li Yunze? If only one Li Yunze can make you happy in this world, then Yining... In this world, only you can make me happy. Feeling the heat of Jin shaosi''s sight, he Yining was going to continue joking, and suddenly became a little embarrassed. Just now I was thinking that I should not be too casual with ACE. How could I forget as soon as I met him?! He Yining grinned secretly, pulled the corners of his mouth, tried to break the embarrassment under the ambiguity, and asked, "ace, do you want to say what the surprise is first?" Jin shaosi took a panoramic view of he Yining''s erratic eyes, and the sense of loss in his heart invaded all nerves. But even so, he can''t reveal anything. Chapter 1322 "I''ll know in a moment..." Jin shaosi said with a restrained smile. He Yining originally asked to break the embarrassment. After hearing Jin shaosi say that, he stopped asking. Why would you rather get off and wait at the gate of the kindergarten? As soon as you came out one by one, you saw Jin shaosi''s car on the roadside. "Mom, does uncle Si have dinner with us today?" One by one, he Yining nodded and brightened his eyes. "In today''s painting class, I painted grapes!" "But I can''t draw so many grapes in the vineyard." Why would you rather go to Jin shaosi''s car with 11''s little hand and ask with a smile, "11, do you want to learn painting?" After thinking about it one by one, he nodded, "OK!" He Yining stopped, looked at them carefully and said, "if you decide, you have to learn to the end. It''s not your interest for a while, nor can you resist because you gradually feel boring... Because your mother gave you a choice, and this is your own choice, okay?" One by one, he tilted his little head and thought, and finally nodded heavily, "well, good! One by one, he likes painting and will study hard." Why do you rather smile and rub your little head one by one, thinking about going back to see if there are any good painting interest classes nearby, and report one to one. One by one, he Yining ran to Jin shaosi''s car. When the door was opened one by one, the sound of the shutter crossed Frame by frame photos clearly record the appearance of he Yining and one by one getting on Jin shaosi''s car, but most of them are just the back of one by one and the side back of he Yining''s face. The car, after he Yining and one by one got on the bus, drove into the peak traffic flow. At the right time, a stout man dressed casually and wearing an ordnance hat came out from behind the trunk of a big tree with an SLR camera and looked in the direction of Jin shaosi''s car After a while, the man looked down at the photos in the camera. He couldn''t help but overflow a proud smile. At the same time, he put down the camera, took out his mobile phone, turned around, adjusted the number and dialed out "The photos are basically taken according to your requirements," the man smiled at the bottom of his eyes. "I''ll send you all the photos later. Remember to call me directly for the balance." "Did you catch a man?" Someone across the street asked. "No, but the car was photographed." The man smiled and said, "under the thirst for knowledge, the hazy guidance of some problems is the thing that arouses the most urgent curiosity, and often loses judgment." Paused, "you know, I''m a professional." "OK, send your photos and I''ll call you the balance." "Well, OK. If you need it in the future, you can find me... Bao Jun is satisfied." The man hung up the phone, went to a place with WiFi, sent the photos in the camera to the mobile phone, and then sent them to the client with the mobile phone Soon, he had a text message indicating that there was money remitted into his account. ¡­¡­ "Wow, shall we eat in the vineyard today?" Seeing the vineyard one by one, he looked at Jin shaosi with bright eyes, "Uncle Si, we must have a good heart." "Must......" Jin shaosi raised his eyebrows and eyes like a child. Sure enough, they were happier one by one. He Yining looked at the interaction between 11 and Jin shaosi. If she was not 11''s mother, she would think 11 was a Si''s daughter. For this, why rather slightly worried. I''m afraid there will be a little unsatisfying when I turn around and Li Yunze appears in front of each other. He Yining secretly made up his mind and must arrange for Li Yunze to meet one by one as soon as possible "Mom, come on!" One by one, he Yining kept standing in place and shouted when he turned back. He Yining smiled and followed. In an open space in the vineyard, a large pot has already been set up to stew delicious soup, and a barbecue rack has been set up on one side. Next to it, there are kebabs and steaks specially pickled with red wine. He Yining looked at the scene and was slightly stunned. At the same time, his eyes gradually became ruddy. Once, workers in Hejia vineyard had such a party for two or three months. At that time, my father would personally pickle the steak and my mother would fry it The wine is specially brewed by which family, which can always make the steak have a taste that can''t be eaten in an outside restaurant. "These two bottles are good in the winery. They can be used tonight..." A simple and honest voice came. He Yining looked at it and saw that it was Tan Zhonglang, and his nose was even more sour. "Miss..." Tan Zhonglang also looked over and saw why Yining they had arrived. He clutched the wine bottle slightly nervously. "Alang decided to come back." Jin shaosi said aside, "Yining, this place will become what it used to be, and the winery will slowly get on the right track..." he looked at he Yining with water mist at the bottom of his eyes, and his voice was soft and affectionate. He said slowly, "although many things will die, Yining, we can also keep a lot of things." Why would you rather look at Jin shaosi with red eyes? After a while, he sucked his nose and said, "thank you, ace." She thought that everything in the past could gradually precipitate with time. However, her love for Li Yunze has never changed. When her parents died, why would she rather think that if she didn''t think about it, she wouldn''t be sad when she dreamed back in the middle of the night, but she couldn''t deceive herself. She missed them very much... Very much! "Mom..." he Yining gently pulled his hand one by one, raised his small face and said in a soft waxy voice, "shall we not cry?" He Yining again inhaled nose, looking at one "well" sound, "one not worried, mom is just happy, feeling happy." "Oh..." answered one by one. Tan Zhonglang came over, looked at Jin shaosi, grinned at he Yining and said, "I''m glad I can come back." "Welcome back, Lang!" He Yining and Tan Zhonglang hugged each other gently, and then they looked at each other and smiled. ¡­¡­ "Li Shao, hard work." At the end of the eight hour operation, everyone was paralyzed, especially Li Yunze, the main knife. At the moment of the success of the operation, although he did not perform too much, his body instinctively reacted to fatigue. Li Yunze nodded slightly, ordered the precautions after the operation, and took the lead in leaving the operating room. Another doctor faced the work of appeasing the family members. Li Yunze took his mobile phone and dialed him to Yining while walking towards the office But no one answered. Li Yunze, look at the time. It''s almost eleven o''clock in the evening. "Asleep?" Li Yunze doubted slightly, but soon denied it. He knows why Ning''s temperament. Since he has to wait for his call, he will never sleep. Moreover, this time is not very late for those who want to read. Li Yunze thought and dialed he Yining again Chapter 1323 He Yining''s mobile phone is in her bag, which is placed on the chair in the pavilion, and she is holding one by one and drilling out of the grape rack. Jin shaosi and Tan Zhonglang are putting out the barbecue stove. Su ruomin and Lu Fan send the unfinished food back to the house and the garbage to the garbage station outside the vineyard It seems that no one is in the pavilion. Li Yunze looked at the mobile phone that was automatically cut off again and wondered why she might have fallen asleep, or the mobile phone was muted due to reading. She didn''t notice at the moment. Li Yunze thought that when people arrived at the office, they opened the door and planned to change clothes and leave the hospital. But the door just opened. When he looked at Chen Yu, who was half lying on the sofa and his feet on the tea table, he frowned slightly. "Why are you here?" Li Yunze went in. Chen Yu was a little drunk. "I just finished socializing. Now I went back and quarreled with Jinxi to sleep, and the taste was too strong." "There are so many hotels outside, do you have to come to me to nest?" Li Yunze couldn''t bear to make complaints about the Tucao and took off his white coat. Chen Yu raised her eyes and looked at Li Yunze. "I''m here with you. At least you can prove that I''m alone... If you go back to the hotel and get photographed by the paparazzi, Jinxi can''t fight with me?!" "As an entertainer, you can''t hold down such a little news?" Li Yunze sneered and didn''t believe it at all. "You''re about to sell yourself in order to hype your stars. It''s really difficult for you." He glanced, "if I were Jinxi, don''t say I won''t let you go home tonight. I''ll lock you out for a month." Chen Yu has a headache. "Can''t you pretend to be confused?!" Li Yunze didn''t bother to pay attention to him. He took the car key and was ready to leave. "I want to rest in the lounge. I''ll go back first." Chen Ying answered and watched Li Yunze leave without moving. He just looked out of the window. The bright moonlight came in. Occasionally, the wind moved the leaves outside the window and mottled the line of sight. As Gu Beichen asked Cha to go deeper and deeper, he always felt vaguely uneasy, as if he was gripped by something. That feeling made him very bad. Taking back his sight, Chen Yu sighed and rubbed his eyebrows swollen by the smell of wine. Then he suddenly remembered that Li Yunze had something wrong today. "Usually the operation ends so late, and I usually don''t see him go back. Why are you so anxious today?" Chen Yu naturally frowned, "can''t it be because of me? But it doesn''t look like..." Chen Yu looked suspiciously at the office door that blocked his sight. In his slightly drunk sight, he was filled with thoughts under gossip. ¡­¡­ After Li Yunze left the hospital, he originally planned to go back to his apartment. But when he reacted, he found that the direction was why he Ning''s direction Li Yunze smiled helplessly at himself and didn''t turn the direction. While continuing to drive forward, he also whispered with a sigh: "you invaded my life all the time when you were a child. How has it evolved into invading my nerves all the time now?" Li Yunze shook his head with a smile. Now he didn''t resist he Yining when he was a child, but had so many wisps of joy. This is a good start for him. Li Yunze drove into the community, found a parking space near he Yining building, and then got off to the building. It''s almost midnight at the moment. The community is quiet everywhere, with a very stable tranquility. Looking up, I didn''t see a house with lights on in the whole building. Li Yunze frowned slightly, and the corners of his mouth couldn''t help but raise a shallow smile, "why Yining, thanks to you saying you wanted to wait for my call, you fell asleep? What about reading?" Li Yunze shook his head, bowed his head, looked at the shadow cast by the night lamp in front of his body, and the smile on the corner of his mouth deepened again. After a while, Li Yunze looked up again and said softly, "Yining, good night!" He smiled and looked back in the direction of the car. At night, the car drove slowly outside the community When Li Yunze''s car turned to the door of the community and got on the road, there was a light behind the car. After a radian, it turned into the door of the community. Li Yunze just glanced instinctively. When his sight crossed the rear of the car, he subconsciously wondered: there are many rich people in the humble family yard community. Li Yunze took back his sight and didn''t care much. Suddenly Just as Li Yunze''s car had left one kilometer away from the community, a "squeak" brake sound came through the night. Li Yunze''s sight fell under the light in front of him. The floating dust was inexplicable in his heart, but a strong mood filled with tension. Li Yunze''s eyes narrowed slightly, and he didn''t even have time to think about it. He started the car again, hit the direction and went back ¡­¡­ Jin shaosi put the sleeping on the bed one by one, covered her with a quilt and then went out of the bedroom. "It''s late. Be careful on your way." He Yining said. On the way back, she saw Li Yunze make two calls to her, but she didn''t receive them before. Because she was in Jin shaosi''s car, she wanted to reply to him when she came back. Eh?! He Yining suddenly looked around. What was he looking for? "Well, you''re early..." Jin shaosi nodded, but saw why Ning was looking for something. "What''s the matter?" "I seem to have left my cell phone in the car." He Yining went to the porch and bag and confirmed that he was not there. "I''ll take it down and bring it up to you." Jin shaosi said that the man had turned around. "I''ll go down with you..." he Ning said hurriedly, "come and go, it''s too late." Looking at he Yining, Jin shaosi was greedy to get along with her for a while, so he nodded, "OK." He Yining and Jin shaosi went downstairs again. Neither of them spoke, and the atmosphere was a little awkward. Jin shaosi found he Yining''s mobile phone in the back seat and turned to hand it to her. "You go back, good night." Why rather pulled the corners of his mouth and said. Xu is because she has an idea in her heart. When there is no one around, she has an unspeakable sense of distance. "Yining..." looking at he Yining''s turn, Jin shaosi''s vision was deep and gently called. He Yining turned around and looked at Jin shaosi with doubts, "huh?" Jin shaosi stepped forward. Under the moonlight, on his indifferent face, he asked in a helpless whisper, "is it impossible between us? You don''t even give me the chance to be around?" He Yining was stunned by Jin shaosi''s question, "I, I didn''t..." Jin shaosi laughed at himself, "but you feel strange to me, don''t you?" "I..." he Yining wanted to say no. she just didn''t want him to waste his time on her. He Yining hasn''t figured out how to say it yet. Suddenly, his body was suddenly held in his arms by Jin shaosi At the right time, Li Yunze''s footsteps stopped in the distance and landed on the two people holding togethe Chapter 1324 Jin Yining doesn''t know whether to raise his hand or not. He doesn''t know if he wants to push his horse away. "Ah... Ah Si?" He Yining''s voice trembled under some uncertainty. Jin shaosi closed her eyes and didn''t hold he Yining tightly. If she wanted to break free, she could be very relaxed. However, he didn''t want to be pushed away by her Even if the hug is just a kind of affection or sympathy. Jin shaosi didn''t speak. Why did Ning hang his hand slowly. She endured the impulse to push Jin shaosi away, and then said, "ah Si, I don''t want the relationship between us to become embarrassing, but you will make me at a loss." Jin shaosi slowly opened his eyes and gently released he Yining, but looking at her line of sight, he seemed to knead her into his body. "Yining, is it your happiness that only Li Yunze can give you?" Major Jin''s voice is a little hoarse. He Yining bit his lower lip and nodded, "ace, you should understand that I have engraved him in my bone marrow, which has become a part of my body... How can I be happy without him?" Without Li Yunze, why should Ning''s life be only pain Such a hidden meaning made Jin shaosi laugh at himself. He lowered his eyes and swallowed the overflow sadness from the bottom of his eyes. "OK, I know..." Jin shaosi gently opened his mouth and slowly raised his eyes. He slowly raised the corners of his mouth, as if the dull pain that had just hit his heart didn''t happen. "It''s very late. Go up quickly." Why Ning zhe nodded with her mouth, she didn''t dare to stay more, and she didn''t dare to say more. She was afraid that her relationship would become a burden to ace Jin shaosi didn''t leave. He just stood there quietly and watched the figure of he Yining enter the entrance of the building. After a while, his sight fell on the position of he Yining''s home. "Yining, I like you..." Jin shaosi''s voice was very heavy in the night. "It''s like the wind has gone eight thousand miles... Don''t ask the date of return!" The night was getting heavier and heavier after midnight, but it was not as heavy as Jin shaosi at the moment. He knew that even if he did too much, he would not get what he wanted, but he was happy. Jin shaosi slowly took back his sight, opened the door and got into the car. He opened his eyes slightly and said, "go back!" "Yes, boss." Lu Fan looked at Jin shaosi sadly, started the car and left the community. Li Yunze''s figure in the shadow of the tree was unreal. He watched Bentley mushang leave, and his handsome face was as heavy as ink. Li Yunze looked at the building where he Yining lived, took his mobile phone and dialed her ¡­¡­ He Yining''s mobile phone is in her hand. Because of shaosi Jin, she is suddenly afraid to return Li Yunze''s phone. I didn''t go to the library tonight. Because a Lang came back and was excited to play one by one, and she didn''t want Li Yunze to have any ideas about her relationship with a Si subconsciously, she didn''t take the initiative to tell him. Now it''s so late, Li Yunze''s phone hasn''t received, and I don''t know if he will think more Suddenly, the cell phone rang suddenly, so scared that he almost threw away his cell phone. Why would you rather see Li Yunze beating it? Because of his guilty heart, his heart is beating like a drum. Calm down, why would you rather take a deep breath before you pick up the phone and put it in your ear "I fell asleep reading?" Li Yunze asked with deep eyes. "Ah?!" Why should Ning be nervous as soon as he heard Li Yunze''s voice, "yes, yes!" He Yining grinned secretly. She didn''t want to cheat Li Yunze, but why did she subconsciously follow his words as soon as he asked?! Li Yunze looked at the direction of the entrance of the building, and a touch of complex emotion crossed his eyes. Why would I rather see Li Yunze not speak and feel guilty? "I..." "Too tired, go to bed early!" Li Yunze interrupted he Yining''s words. He subconsciously resisted. She would tell him more lies. "The book can''t be read at once." He Yining''s nose was suddenly sour by Li Yunze''s voice. She felt guilty that she had lied subconsciously, "you have had such a long operation, and you have to rest early..." "Well, good!" Li Yunze answered softly, "good night." "Good night!" Why is Ning''s voice a little muffled. Li Yunze hung up the phone and looked up slightly. Looking at the only resident with lights on in the building, he couldn''t see to the end. Yining, is it like this to like someone?! I was even afraid that you would tell me a lie, and I was even more afraid... That excellent young master Jin would be above me and become your choice. Li Yunze slowly took back his sight and dragged some heavy body to the other side of the car. After getting into the car, Li Yunze didn''t leave immediately. He just lit a cigarette and leaned powerlessly against the car seat. ¡­¡­ the second day. One by one, while eating breakfast, he Yining was secretly staring at him. "What''s the matter?" Put down the spoon one by one, "Mom, your dark circles are so heavy... Didn''t you sleep last night?" Why Ning subconsciously touched around his eyes, pulled the corners of his mouth and said, "it''s estimated that the sleeping position is wrong. Well, eat quickly, or the time will be too tight." "Oh..." I didn''t think about it one by one and continued to have breakfast. He Yining sighed quietly. The position of her heart has been like pressing a stone since Li Yunze called last night, which made her gasp for breath. "One by one, shall I arrange for you to meet that uncle?" He Yining asked on the way to send 11. "Good!" "Mom, have you decided one by one?" "Yes." Why should Ning answer, send one by one to the teacher and send a text message to Li Yunze. Yining: would you like to come and pick me up at night? I have something to tell you. Li Yunze rubbed his swollen temples and looked at the content of he Yining''s text message. Thinking of her hug with Jin shaosi downstairs last night, his heart suddenly twisted off: can''t you say it now? Yining: No, because only a specific environment is good... It won''t work now! Li Yunze looked at a tongue sticking face behind the text message, and the corners of his mouth couldn''t help but raise a slight arc: OK, I''ll pick you up from work in the evening. Yining: Well, I''ll go to work first. See you after work. Li Yunze: OK, see you after work. The elevator reached Li Yunze''s office floor with a "Ding" sound. Li Yunze installed his mobile phone and went to the office. As soon as he opened the door, he saw Chen spread a pile of breakfast on his desk, eating and looking at his mobile phone. "Isn''t Jin shaosi patronizing to compete for the family industry? Why do you have children?" Chen Yu said and looked at Li Yunze. "You''re here. Breakfast. If you don''t eat, you''ll come together." "What did you just say?" Li Yunze asked. Chen Yu runs an entertainment company and controls a lot of media gossip. "Last time it was revealed that the current president of Brunei Jin''s group, Jin shaosi, was secretly married, so he was photographed to pick up the children in the kindergarten..." Chen Yu directly handed his mobile phone to Li Yunze. "It''s estimated that it''s a news that the children and women don''t get their faces and can''t see who they are." Li Yunze pulled the mobile phone, then looked down, and his eyes fell on the picture of why Ning opened the door and holding one by one''s hand to let her get on the bus first Chapter 1325 "This Jin shaosi''s is quite legendary..." Chen Yu stuffed a steamed stuffed bun into his mouth and said vaguely. "In ten years, he just squeezed out the boss who was most likely to be inherited by the Jin family and immediately became the richest man in Brunei." Li Yunze has been looking at the photos on his mobile phone. Others may not recognize the woman, but he can see it at a glance. The car he Yining took his child to was the Bentley moushan that "passed" his car last night. "However, not long after he officially mastered Jin''s group, he came to Los Angeles. Then he broke out to visit an infant products store with his hidden wife. Now he just broke out to pick up the children from school..." Chen said while eating. Li Yunze glanced at Chen Yu coldly. When he took back his sight again, he looked at the figures one by one and couldn''t tell the taste in his heart. It''s not the first time he Yining slept with him. Having a child doesn''t seem so hard to believe It''s just, he Yining, are you tangled with me while taking your children with other men? Is it just because of the dream you couldn''t complete as a child? Thinking of this, Li Yunze''s heart contracted. The uncomfortable feeling made him sink to the bottom of the cliff in an instant. Chen Yu is still talking about Jin shaosi''s gossip, which fully reflects his identity as a media person, just like Bagong. Li Yunze threw his mobile phone in front of Chen Yu and said in a cold voice: "instead of talking about other people''s gossip here, it''s better to think about how to solve your own gossip." "What gossip do I have?" Chen Yu smiled and looked at Li Yunze, "who provoked you this morning? Your face is so smelly?" Li Yunze snorted coldly, "see for yourself." He said, glancing at his cell phone. Chen Yu doesn''t care to pick up the page, but it''s not Jin shaosi''s gossip, but his! Most importantly, the title encourages "Popular hot sexy actress Dai Fen is suspected to be on the top of the hidden rules, and the senior management of China entertainment media group was shot!" Although there are many senior executives of Huaye media, Dai Fen is now the star of the sexy line advocated by Huaye, and Chen Yu also issued a special order "Shit, who the fuck is so bold?" Chen Yu immediately burst into foul language and scolded, "it''s unclear. It''s clear that it doesn''t make everyone think it''s the highest level of entertainment, that is, Lao Tzu and me!" The photo under the title of encouragement turns out that Dai Fen and Chen Yu are entering a hotel, and they are very close to each other. Even if the photos are blurred, even if there are many people on one side, the people will not care about them. They will only think they have an affair I won''t investigate. When was the real time of this photo taken! As a media person, Chen Yu knows this very well. Li Yunze glanced at Chen Yu indifferently, because Jin shaosi and he Yining''s news were so blocked that he suddenly felt unhappy and could not see the happiness of others when he saw Chen Yu''s face of disaster. Sure enough Make complaints about mobile phone interface. Li Jinxi''s! Chen Yu looked at Li Yunze with a hard face. "Yunze, you must testify to me. I was with you last night." "I went home last night and came here in the morning." Li Yunze said coldly. "..." Chen Yu was speechless. First, Li Yunze stared and implied that after he left, he might leave and come back before he came. When he answered the phone, Chen Yu grinned with a pair of dog legs: "wife..." "Yo, is it disturbing you?" Li Jinxi said in a crooked voice, "is the sexy actress feeling good? Is the cover enough? Do you want me to send another box to you so that you can have fun?" Chen Yu choked on his throat with a mouthful of old blood and said with a grin: "wife, it''s estimated that the condom is not enough. I spent a night here in Yunze last night and was ready to go. I have to use it with you at night!" "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth as he listened to Chen Yu''s words. "Chen Yu..." Li Jinxi immediately raised his voice. "Don''t take care of him. You have the ability to go out and find a woman. Don''t expect to enter my door in your life." "Jinxi, you''re also a media worker. You should know that the media is catching on the wind and talking in pictures..." Chen Yu said hurriedly. "Besides, I can let Yunze prove that I didn''t go to any hotel last night, but in Huakang." With that, Chen Yu quickly winked at Li Yunze, and then handed him his mobile phone and asked him to explain to Li Jinxi. Li Yunze didn''t answer, but said faintly, "I wasn''t in the hospital last night..." The voice was not loud or small. Although he didn''t face the mobile phone, Li Jinxi could also hear it. "Shit," Chen Yu immediately blew his hair and asked without thinking, "can you tell the truth?" Li Yunze looked innocent. "I''m telling the truth!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Xuan gnashed his teeth and had no way to refute. He suddenly realized that he didn''t know where to offend Li Yunze. He was retaliating! After listening to Li Jinxi''s roar on the phone, the phone was cut off. Chen Yu squeezed out two words from his teeth, "you''re cruel!" He got up and hurried out. "I''m leaving now?" Li Yunze''s voice came from behind. Chen Xuan looked back and stared, "don''t you stay here and continue to be framed by you?" Then he opened the door of the office and left with big steps Don''t think about it. I must have gone to Li Jinxi to explain. In Li Yunze''s eyes, the love between Li Jinxi and Chen Yu is a deep feeling caused by a small quarrel in three days and a big quarrel in five days. One has a bad temper and the other has his own wife. He enjoys himself in dogleg and flattering life. The office was instantly quiet, and the feeling of emptiness in Li Yunze''s chest suddenly invaded all his thoughts. He stood in front of the office window with a touch of self mockery in his mouth He Yining, should I let you go? Maybe you and I have known each other from the beginning, and there may be no way to get on the right road in this life! ¡­¡­ He Yining changed his white coat and went to the front outpatient building. On the way, she felt guilty about what happened last night. Finally, she couldn''t stand her behavior and decided to tell Li Yunze. A few "drops" were heard, and there was a continuous sound of text messages arriving. Li Yunze didn''t look at it and naturally didn''t reply. Why did Ning people arrive at the clinic? Seeing that Li Yunze didn''t reply, he estimated that he was busy, so he threw himself into the busy of seeing the clinic. Li Yunze didn''t know how long he stood in front of the window. He didn''t take back his thoughts until a nurse knocked on the door. "Li Shao, God asked, are you going to the ward round today?" "No..." Li Yunze turned around, "tidy up the things on the table." "OK." The nurse cleaned up the rest of Chen Yu''s breakfast and left the office. Li Yunze then picked up his mobile phone and crossed the text message Chapter 1326 Yining: Li Yunze, I want to plead guilty. I lied to you last night. Yining: yesterday afternoon, I said I was going to the library, but when I got off work, ace was in the hospital, and then we finally went back to the vineyard together. Yining: Oh, it''s the former vineyard of he family. Ace bought the former vineyard and winery of he family, and then Alan, the former winemaker of he family, came back and talked in the vineyard until very late. Yining: I didn''t directly say it was my fault when I answered the phone. It''s also my fault that ACE didn''t report to you when he came to pick me up... I''m honest now, so you won''t be angry?! Behind this message, there is also a flattering expression. The last one: look at the face that I will surprise you at night, you won''t be angry, will you?! Li Yunze looked at he Yining''s short message, and his mood became more and more complex. She told him about the situation last night, but she only omitted to pick up the children from the kindergarten What do you want, he Yining? Do you want to be with me or with Jin shaosi? Suddenly Li Yunze wrung his eyebrows slightly and couldn''t figure out some problems. If the relationship between Yining and Jin shaosi has reached a certain circle, why didn''t Jin shaosi intercept him when he took Yining away in the restaurant that day? How can the temperament of a man who has endured the burden for ten years and finally won the Jin group allow his own to be taken away by others? One question after another crossed my mind and made Li Yunze completely lose his calmness. He closed his eyes powerlessly and rubbed the swollen eyebrows I used to see boss long planning strategies for warmth. I didn''t understand. I also saw that Beichen tore his heart and lungs for Jian Mo, and I couldn''t understand it Now, he understands that love is really something that makes people lack intelligence and even powerless. The mobile phone ring suddenly came. Li Yunze slowly opened his eyes. Seeing that it was Gu Beichen, he picked it up: "how''s it going?" "Mo''er doesn''t remember me!" Gu Beichen''s voice was tired. Jian Mo is not dead, Li Yunze is clear, after all, he did the DNA comparison of the body of "Jian Mo". I don''t remember... What does that mean? ¡°Silence£¿£¡¡± "Yes." Gu Beichen replied with a deep voice, "how''s your research over there?" "There is no big breakthrough for the time being, but there are some small ideas. Let''s try them later..." "Yunze, as soon as possible!" "I know..." Gu Beichen answered and talked to Li Yunze about the current situation of Jian Mo, which is basically to sleep. Many things will not be remembered before. The most important thing is that Shi Shaoqin doesn''t know how to do it. Jian Mo will remember him when she wakes up, but she only has a slight sense of familiarity with Gu Beichen After Li Yunze hung up the phone, he went directly to the research room. He first looked at the cultivation of silence disintegrating drugs before starting a new experiment. ¡­¡­ He Yining glanced at his mobile phone in his spare time. Li Yunze didn''t reply to the text message. "Early in the morning..." why would you rather twist your eyebrows and murmur, "is there a big operation?" Although many operations will be arranged in the morning as far as possible, when Li Yunze wants to have a major operation recently, he will tell her in advance and explain something Not today. "Maybe it''s a temporary emergency operation..." he Yining found another reason. As soon as he put down his mobile phone, an outpatient came in with a list. "What do you want to see?" He Yining took the registration form and asked. "I want to see if I''m pregnant..." Xia Xiao sat down and said. He Yining nodded, "have you checked yourself?" "Yes, come and make sure." Xia Xiao had an expectant smile on her face. "By the way, see how old it is." "OK..." why Ning Xu is his mother, and he is especially careful for every mother. After she gave Xia Xiao a test sheet, she asked her to check it first. Xia Xiao took the test sheet, thanked him and left. When he came to the door of the clinic, he looked back at what he Yining was writing on his desk Time, in the busy past, in the twinkling of an eye to noon. He Yining was eating in the hospital canteen and looked at his mobile phone. There was no reply from Li Yunze. "Are you busy or angry that I was dishonest last night?" He Yining poked the rice with his chopsticks and drooped his shoulders angrily. "I''m angry and reply to a text message. It''s really annoying, isn''t it?!" He Yining had no appetite and left the canteen after reluctantly eating some. Because I was thinking whether Li Yunze was angry, that emotion began to expand infinitely. He wanted to call Li Yunze directly, but he was afraid that he was busy. If he couldn''t answer the phone, he would think that he was angry and didn''t want to answer the phone Finally, he Yining called yanmiao first. "Are you in the hospital?" He Yining asked. "Just took over. What''s the matter?" Yanmiao signed the doctor''s handover record. "What is Li Yunze doing?" He Yining suddenly lowered his voice like a thief. Yan Miao looked around. "I haven''t seen anyone yet... What''s the matter?" "Help me!" Yan Miao couldn''t stand rolling his eyes. "You two haven''t been very sweet recently. Why, temporary check post?" "Yes, it''s temporary post inspection. Can you help me see?" Why do you rather have a coy voice. Yan Miao looks at why Ning is doing this now. Although she is worried about the future outcome, she is still very happy for her. "Is Li Shao outside God today?" Yanmiao directly asked the nurse outside God. "I didn''t come to the ward round today. I sent it for inspection at that time. Li Shao seemed to be in the research room." Yanmiao nodded, walked to the office and said, "yes, I''ve been in the hospital. I didn''t come to the ward round in the morning. I went directly to the research room." Why Ning''s heart is empty. Although it is clear that she will devote herself to the study without looking at the mobile phone, inexplicably, she feels that Li Yunze has read it and just doesn''t want to reply. He was... Angry! Why should I rather keep my mouth and feel sad, but I also know that I can only blame myself, not Li Yunze. "I hope one by one can make you happier..." he Yining took a deep breath and nodded firmly. ¡­¡­ It was already four o''clock in the afternoon when Li Yunze left the research room. He was a little tired. After returning to the office and changing his clothes, he left the hospital directly. Driving the car, Li Yunze was aimless. The child he Yining didn''t mention was always in his mind. Finally, Li Yunze drove to the kindergarten where he Yining was located. Li Yunze will be familiar with here, thanks to Gu Beichen. Before, Jian Mo lived in Runze garden near here. When she just came back from England, Jian Jie also sent her to kindergarten here. Li Yunze stopped at the side of the road, turned his head, and his sight fell on the front door of the kindergarten Chapter 1327 Qu Weiwei put the finalized jewelry design drawings into the bag. After receiving the second batch of customized funds from Xia Xiaowei, she asked with a smile, "have you checked it?" Xia Xiao nodded. "I went in the morning, just the doctor he you recommended. He looks very enthusiastic..." "She''s just transferred, which is very helpful to you." Qu Weiwei said with a smile. "Vivian, thank you." Xia Xiao thanked from the heart, "I will remember this favor." "Reciprocity..." Qu Weiwei said with disapproval and got up. "Then I''ll go first and leave the jewelry factory. Because there are many varieties, it is estimated that the construction period is about two months, and the finished products can definitely come out before the summit." "That''s OK. You know, there are a lot of them for customers." Xia Xiao said with a smile, "my husband will give me this matter. How can I do it for him." "Well, I''ll keep an eye on it." Qu Weiwei said, went to the porch, changed her shoes, said goodbye and left. The car leaves Runze garden and Qu Weiwei drives towards the studio Suddenly, she glanced at a car on the side of the road at the gate of the kindergarten and was slightly confused. That seems to be... Li Yunze''s car?! Qu Weiwei drew a touch of emotion in her eyes and pulled over immediately. She looked at Li Yunze''s car for a while and then looked at the time. It was almost an hour before the kindergarten was finished A sneer crossed the corner of her mouth. Qu Weiwei picked up her mobile phone and said, "you shouldn''t be together... Even God won''t help you, will you?" Li Yunze''s mobile phone rang. He took back his sight in the direction of the kindergarten, took out his mobile phone and looked at the call. Seeing that it was Qu Weiwei''s, he frowned slightly and picked it up indifferently, "huh?" "Why are you in front of the kindergarten?" While Qu Weiwei said this, she looked sideways at Li Yunze''s car. "Come and pick up Yining''s child!" Li Yunze immediately frowned and subconsciously asked, "how do you know about children?" "I have a customer in Runze garden who often comes here recently and passes by the kindergarten every day..." Qu Weiwei said easily and normally. "At first, I saw Fang Zihan pick up the children, and then I met Yining several times to send the children to school." She seemed to smile unexpectedly, "I read the report again today. Although it''s all back, it should be Yining girl..." Li Yunze''s heart suddenly tightened, and the uncomfortable feeling made him have an impulse to escape. Yes, he can''t face it sometimes. "Unexpectedly, Yining''s children are so old, which is quite unexpected..." Qu Weiwei seemed to whisper and asked, "but Yunze, Yining has children. Do you mind?" "Why should I mind?" Li Yunze pressed down the surging of the complex emotions in his heart and said calmly, "it''s just a child. I can''t afford it." Qu Weiwei heard Li Yunze say the same, obviously with some exceptions. Li Yunze used to hate he Yining so much. Now even if he has some ideas in his heart, he doesn''t mind if he has other men''s children?! With her understanding of Li Yunze, how could she react like this? Qu Weiwei glanced at Li Yunze''s car again. Listening to his words, she should have never seen the little girl. Otherwise, even if she couldn''t recognize it at a glance, she couldn''t say it like that "It''s good to have a big heart." Qu Weiwei deliberately finished saying, and her eyes crossed with a chill, "well, wait slowly, I''ll go first." "Yes!" Li Yunze answered and hung up. He tilted his head, looked at Qu Weiwei''s car and saw her start and leave. Li Yunze, who was depressed and pressed in his chest, began to breathe short. He wanted to have myocardial infarction. He was suffocating and uncomfortable. Li Yunze slowly leaned against the car seat, and his eyes overflowed and tangled with complex emotions. The complexity of the soul that seemed to be torn apart under the ignorant love made him unable to contain his own wishful thinking. Is that child Jin shaosi''s? Is he Yining still in love with him, or just for the dream he once loved? If it was Jin shaosi''s, how could Jin shaosi allow he Yining to entangle with him? If it''s Jin shaosi''s child, what will he do? Why stay with me? Or... When there is no deep-rooted love, pull away Li Yunze pulled at the corners of his mouth with self mockery, but after only a few days together, he would feel uncomfortable when he thought of leaving. Li Yunze, is this God''s punishment for your disgust with he Yining?! Just when Li Yunze felt uncomfortable, the mobile phone rang again Li Yunze slowly opened his eyes, took his cell phone and saw why he Ning called. For a moment, he didn''t know how to face it. When the mobile phone bell was about to ring, Li Yunze picked it up and put it in his ear. "Yunze, when are you coming?" He Yining''s voice is a little muffled, obviously mixed with the carefulness of being sorry but not forgiven. Li Yunze looked sideways at the kindergarten, and his inner sadness and sadness increased by one point. "I''m a little busy today, I''m afraid I can''t get through it." "Ah?!" He Yining''s voice was full of loss. When Yunze found out what was happening, she said to her heart more stiffly. Silence. There was a strange silence between the two. Why should Ning hang his eyes and ask, "are you still angry..." Li Yunze took a deep breath, "if you can take the initiative, I won''t be angry." In a word, it means two things. For last night, but also look forward to why you would rather take the initiative to tell the child. "But..." why would you rather smile at the corner of your mouth, "tomorrow... If you have something else to do tomorrow, can you move it away as far as possible?" Li Yunze was silent for a few seconds, "OK!" "Well, be busy first... Remember to eat." "Yes." Why rather bitterly hung up the phone, the feeling of loss in my heart is getting heavier and heavier. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze looked at the direction of the kindergarten again and was suddenly afraid to see why he Ning came to pick up the little girl. Finally, he wanted to see it and fled because of fear ¡­¡­ Why would she rather stand in front of the kindergarten and wait for school one by one? Because what happened last night caused today''s low pressure, her thoughts are always floating. I don''t know why, she felt something had happened "Mom..." seeing he Yining one by one, he shouted and ran to he Yining. He Yining looked at them one by one and sighed in his heart. I''ve been excited for a long time since this morning. I still think I''ll meet Li Yunze one by one today! "We won''t go home to eat today. Let''s eat out!" He Yining is not in the mood to cook. "Good!" 11. Naturally, I don''t mind, "what shall we eat?" He Yining thought about it. He talked to alang about the winery yesterday. Since Li Yunze won''t come today, eat near the winery and then go to the winery. After escaping from the winery for so many years, I always have to go back and have a look Chapter 1328 After Li Yunze left the kindergarten, he drove directly to blues. Blues is Gu Beichen''s private place. Although it is also open to the public, the real good wine is not open to the public. "Li Shao..." the waiter said hello. Li Yunze just nodded slightly and went to the underground wine cellar. In the cellar, there are many treasures, just like a miniature winery. When he family didn''t fall down before, he and Beichen would often go to he family''s winery, because there were some wines that were not made by his father, he Yining. Although it can''t be compared with the top wines in France, there are some unique wines made by his father, which have no taste in the outside market. Beichen once said that it was the taste of emotion. He is different from Beichen. Beichen was raised by grandma Gu and grandpa Gu since childhood. Although he was brought up in a beautiful sunshine, he knew that he longed for his parents'' affection, even if he never said it. Therefore, Beichen tasted the "taste" in uncle he''s wine! Li Yunze went round and round in the cellar. Finally, he directly picked three bottles of wine. Two bottles need to wake up for an hour or two. One bottle doesn''t need to wake up. You can wait for those two bottles while drinking. Los Angeles four little, now has been separated everywhere. It''s hard to find someone who doesn''t care about the scene to drink now Besides, is he hurt by love?! Li Yunze drank one cup after another. The good red wine crossed the taste buds and disappeared into his throat. It was all bitter and astringent. When Jian Mo left Los Angeles a few years ago, Beichen drank alone on the night of heaven. Finally, he could only shout Jian Mo''s name under the hazy intoxication. He also said that Beichen was'' no Zuo no die ''. What is he now? Li Yunze pulled the corners of his mouth, a glass of wine and poured it into his mouth. ¡­¡­ After eating one by one, he Yining and went to the former winery of he family. She stood at the door for a long time, but suddenly she was afraid to go in. Although I know that after many years, it may not be the same as before. "Mom..." one by one gently shook he Yining''s hand, raised his small face and asked. Why should Ning hang his eyes and look at them one by one, and gently say, "when mom is as old as you, she will be brought here by grandpa when she''s okay..." "Oh?" One by one, his eyes lit up. "However, my mother is good at eating grapes, but she doesn''t like wine." "I don''t like it, I only like grapes." One by one. He Yining looked at his daughter''s distressed appearance and felt very soft. Li Yunze will like one by one. She''s so beautiful. Why don''t she like it? "Miss he?" There was a voice of slight doubt. Why Ning looked for his voice and saw Su ruomin coming from the door of the winery, "Secretary Su!" "Are you looking for boss?" Su ruomin smiled and said, "he and Mr. Tan are inside." He Yining was surprised. "Are ASI and Arang there?" Su ruomin nodded. "You go in. I have something to deal with, so I''ll go first." "OK." He Yining and Su ruomin both nodded and looked at her. After she left, they were already excited to drag he Yining''s hand to the winery I like Jin shaosi very much, not only because he is handsome, but also because he is very good to his mother and her. Children''s hearts are very sensitive. Adults think they don''t understand. In fact, they know better than anyone. He Yining was dragged into the winery one by one. He saw the back of Jin shaosi and Tan Zhonglang sitting at the bar from a distance. His eyes suddenly opened and his mouth wanted to shout. But when she opened her mouth, the little girl swallowed what she was about to shout. Why rather looked at one by one curiously, he saw one by one looking at her, blinking his eyes. The black pupils were full of cunning. Why Ning smiled knowingly and nodded to understand the meaning one by one. The mother and daughter walked quietly to Jin shaosi Jin shaosi grabbed the red wine glass and gently turned the glass body. He watched the scarlet wine flowing on the glass wall and finally disappeared into the wine at the bottom. His voice was a little dignified and asked, "how did the master and wife have a car accident?" Jin shaosi tilted his head slightly and looked at Tan Zhonglang. Tan Zhonglang also looked at him. When he took back his sight, he sighed deeply. "It''s also an accident, but..." Tan Zhonglang pulled down the corners of his mouth astringently and sighed again. "I''m not very clear about the details. I just know that the young lady went to Li Yunze that day. It seems that there was a quarrel between the two people on the phone before. Naturally, the young lady has something to ask in person." Jin shaosi raised his hand and sipped the red wine, waiting for Tan Zhonglang to continue. "The master and his wife were originally working on new grape seedlings. When they heard about it, they were afraid that the relationship between miss and Li Yunze was getting worse..." Tan Zhonglang''s voice was more dignified. "Just call Miss, but miss''s phone has been blocked." Jin shaosi frowned slightly "Then, I don''t know whether the master and wife went out of the vineyard to find the lady or something else..." Tan Zhonglang didn''t continue to say, but ended with a deep sigh. He Yining''s eyelashes kept trembling. Her red eyes suddenly asked, "that day, it was..." Jin shaosi and Tan Zhonglang suddenly look back. They are surprised to see why Ning He is one by one. Because in the winery, there were people coming and going, and naturally they didn''t think about why they would rather appear suddenly. "Yining..." Jin shaosi frowned anxiously. Why would she rather hold one by one''s hand tightly? She tried to pull the corners of her mouth, hurriedly put down the sentence "I suddenly remembered something, I left with one by one first", and then turned and wanted to leave with one by one in a hurry. Jin shaosi was worried and hurried to catch up. "I want to be quiet..." he Yining''s mood fluctuates violently, "okay?" Jin shaosi looked at he Yining and felt distressed, "I''ll take you back!" Why rather bite the lip, finally, nod. Jin shaosi sent he Yining and home one by one, and felt that his mother was in a bad mood one by one. Although she patronized how to scare uncle Si at that time and didn''t pay much attention to what uncle Si and uncle Lang said, she knew that her mother was in a bad mood because of their dialogue. "I''m fine, you, you go..." why is it urgent to be alone. Her mind was full of Tan Zhonglang''s words. Dad and mom had a car accident. Is it really because of her? She questioned Li Yunze about Qu Weiwei and Li Yunze that day... Then her father and mother had a car accident that day! He Yining tried to endure his emotions. Jin shaosi knew that she was waiting for him to leave before breaking out. "Then I''ll go first. Call me if you have anything, okay?" Jin shaosi spoke. He Yining nodded and sent Jin shaosi away. After leaving, he leaned against the door alone "Mom..." one by one, I was afraid of he Yining at the moment. He Yining tried to breathe deeply, "mom is fine, good!" One by one, he raised his small face, completely worried. That Li Yunze, can it be that handsome doctor''s Li Yunze?! One by one, I wanted to ask, but I knew my mother was unhappy, so I obediently carried a small book bag into my bedroom. He Yining powerlessly closed his eyes and gradually clenched his hands. The pain turned her face white ¡­¡­ Li Yunze drank more and more irritable and sober. His mind was full of the figure of he Yining and the little girl. He put down his glass, got up suddenly and went out. The car passed the night that was almost ten o''clock. Li Yunze didn''t go home, but went directly to the community where he Yining was located. He didn''t know why he was crazy. When he arrived, he didn''t think about it and went upstairs directly. "Ding Dong, Dong Dong!" The door bell wreaks havoc on the auditory nerve. Why should I turn around tired and gently open the door But when she saw Li Yunze standing at the door, her eyes suddenly widened, "Why are you here?" Looking at her expression, Li Yunze''s anger burst out in an instant. He pushed he Yining into the room and slammed the door. "Li... Eh!" As soon as he Yining made a sound, she was pushed to the door by Li Yunze. Because her strength was not controlled, she was hit with some pain. "He Yining, you..." "Why are you bullying my mother?" Suddenly, a young voice mixed with anger came from behind. Li Yunze suddenly looked back Chapter 1329 Because he Yining was unhappy today and didn''t sleep. He was just reading fairy tale books in the house. Suddenly I heard a big noise outside. I thought what happened to my mother. I hurried out to see... I saw Li Yunze overwhelm why Ning on the door. One by one stared at Li Yunze with round eyes and looked at him angrily. At this moment, it seemed that the little girl couldn''t see Li Yunze''s handsome because she was angry, and there was the doctor''s handsome millet. Li Yunze forgot his reaction and looked at the one that was very similar to why Yining when he was a child. The whole pupil began to open The most important thing is... Why does he think this little girl is a little familiar?! This familiarity instantly made Li Yunze feel as if he had seen a little shadow of himself Although the shadow is not obvious, it is a little bit, isn''t it?! But... How is it possible?! When and why did he give birth to such a big child Magic?! Or is it because he can''t accept the fact that he would rather have a child, and subconsciously hopes that the child is his own?! Li Yunze ''Shua'' looked back and looked at he Yining with doubts in his eyes. He Yining didn''t expect to meet Li Yunze one by one under such circumstances. For a time, he didn''t know how to react. "You are a bad man, you let go of my mother!" One by one ran over, caught in the gap between Li Yunze and he Yining, and went to push Li Yunze. Li Yunze naturally could not be pushed one by one. He looked down at the little man''s angry face and felt a sudden pain in his heart. One by one, she pushed Li Yunze hard. She stubbornly pricked her small mouth and was'' wheezing ''in her nose. Li Yunze suddenly raised his eyes, crimson eyes, gnashing his teeth and shouting, "what, to, Ning!" He Ning pushed Yunze''s head away one by one Li Yunze''s body was pushed away a step or two. It was not so much pushed away as his brain capacity was not enough at the moment. What''s the similarity between eyebrows and eyes when you say that the little girl is not her own child? But if it''s his own child, when did he and he Yining have a child? Li Yunze''s thoughts churned violently. He didn''t know when and why he Yining went to bed a few years ago. Even if he Yining stole his sperm, it''s unrealistic Because there is no chance! Li Yunze, who was more and more confused, looked at them one by one, one big and one small, one looking at them blankly, and the other was just like the little beast who treated the hunter and wanted to protect his mother. He was fried all over and ready to fight. He Yining looked at Li Yunze and one by one. Originally, she wanted to meet her father and daughter, although the meeting was a little "surprise". Well, it''s amazing... But it looks like there''s no joy. Why do you rather squat down, pull one by one, lift your eyes, look at Li Yunze, and introduce: "one by one, he''s yours..." "I don''t like this uncle!" One by one, he Yining interrupted her without waiting for him to finish. He said angrily and solemnly, "I don''t like it at all!" Why rather wrung his eyebrows, looked up at Li Yunze, and then looked at one by one. The bottom of his eyes was completely worried. Li Yunze also frowned. When the little girl said she didn''t like him, why did he feel very lost... It was like being chiseled with a heart by something. "One by one..." he Yining opened his mouth and tried to say something. "Mom, I want to sleep..." one by one, the voice was soft and waxy. He Yining''s hand interrupted her again, "can you let this uncle go?" One by one, he looked at Li Yunze with disdain in his eyes. The uncle has a great smell of wine. He must have drunk a lot of wine. One by one, he fanned his eyes and felt very uncomfortable. Before, I saw that this uncle was so handsome in the doctor''s clothes. Why didn''t he look so handsome when he was a doctor?! At this moment, I can''t tell myself. Because I don''t like Li Yunze, I think he''s not handsome, but I''m very resistant in my heart. ¡°¡­¡­¡± He Yining was worried more and more. She thought about resisting Li Yunze for a while, but she didn''t expect such disgust. Mainly, she just didn''t expect Li Yunze to come over and was seen one by one that he was "bad" to her. The child''s mind was sensitive Li Yunze didn''t speak. At this moment, the slightly drunk spirit had all dispersed, "take her to bed first." The indisputable words show forbearance. He seems to have to sort out some things ha-ha! If the little girl is really his daughter, does the whole world know it, but his father doesn''t? Like a fool, because she''s been angry all day?! Why did Ning zhe lower the corner of her mouth, get up and take one by one to the bathroom to wash her. Looking back again and again, her little face could not hide her dislike for Li Yunze. After washing them one by one, he Yining took her to bed "Mom, is this uncle Li Yunze?" Asked one by one. He Yining didn''t think much, "well, the doctor you came back to see is handsome millet, and the person mom is dating now is also..." "But I don''t like him to be a father!" One by one, he lowered his eyes in distress, and his small mouth tooted slightly because of entanglement and resistance, "Mom, do you like him very much? Is it right? One by one, you can only call him father?!" Looking at his daughter''s resistance, he Yining felt a little sad. Even, blame yourself! Seeing why he would rather not speak, he raised his eyes one by one, and asked in a pinch: "is this Li Yunze the same person as Uncle Lang?" She didn''t pay attention at that time, but when she heard the name, she seemed to hear that her mother quarreled with him on the phone Then my mother was very unhappy. She doesn''t like this uncle. She doesn''t want to call this uncle "Dad"! One by one was an unintentional question, which made why Yining temporarily forget the thoughts of what he heard from Tan Zhonglang because of the sudden meeting between Li Yunze and one by one, and suddenly gathered together again. The greater self reproach made he Yining''s breath short and his eyes red. One by one, seeing why Yining like this, his eyelashes blinked a few times. Suddenly, his big eyes were covered by the water mist, and his young voice said cautiously: "Mom, I''m sorry, if mom likes it, one by one, mom doesn''t feel sad, okay..." At last, one by one''s small mouth had shrunk, and the tears seemed to roll down with a little. Seeing this one by one, why should I feel so sad. She clings to her body, gently and falsely holds one by one, and softly comforts: "mom is not angry. Everyone has the right to manage their preferences. Mom''s preferences can''t be imposed on one by one..." she paused, "but you and this uncle met for the first time. It''s too arbitrary to say that you don''t like them. We can get along first, okay?" Chapter 1330 11. He was resistant in his heart, especially when Li Yunze and Jin shaosi were compared in an instant. Under the simple mind of the child, the natural Libra was biased towards Jin shaosi. However, one by one, I didn''t want to see my mother sad. I nodded my head and answered, "OK..." He Yining kissed her on the forehead one by one, covered her with a quilt, dimmed the wall lamp, "good night!" "Good night, mom!" One by one, he closed his eyes skillfully. Why Ning went out of the small bedroom, opened his eyes one by one, got out of bed quietly, put his little face on the door and wanted to listen to the movement outside In the living room, the atmosphere was somewhat stagnant. Li Yunze sat on the sofa and looked at why he Ning came out. He didn''t speak, so he looked at her. Why did Ning Zhe''s lips look at Li Yunze and turn around to pour him a glass of water. No one has broken the silence, or no one knows where to speak now After a while, Xu was so depressed that it was too uncomfortable. Why would he rather ask first: "how do you know which family I am?" Last time Li Yunze sent her back, she didn''t go upstairs Li Yunze looked at he Yining and laughed at himself. Tell him that it was so late after the operation last night. Did he still come here? Or tell her that he saw her lying last night Li Yunze didn''t answer. Why would he rather hang his eyes and keep stirring his hands because he was nervous. He Yining felt very sad. When she was a child, she used her whole youth to pursue Li Yunze without results. Now she has made a breakthrough, but she found that she may have caused her parents'' car accident indirectly. If it is He Yining suddenly didn''t dare to think. She closed her eyes and her mind was in a mess. All kinds of thoughts were pulling. "One by one is your daughter..." he Yining opened his eyes and said. No matter what else happened, it was Li Yunze''s daughter. She was going to tell him that since she met, there was no need to hide it. No matter what happens in the future, one by one has the right to enjoy Li Yunze''s love, and Li Yunze also has the right to know that one by one is his daughter. Li Yunze didn''t know how to react. At that time, speculation was one thing. Now it''s another thing to hear why Ning said it himself. One by one... It''s really his daughter! Why did Ning look at the shocked Li Yunze with his twisted fingers rubbing a little red, "you drank too much at the classmate party that year..." Li Yunze''s face was a little bad, so there was no need to say the next thing. His classmate party was filled with a lot of wine by many people, and the living room fell into silence. He lay on the door one by one, and his little face was full of distress. He Yining and Li Yunze are afraid to disturb their sleep. They are all pressed very low. Except that they can feel the slightest bit of someone talking, they can''t hear anything at all. One by one angrily climbed back to the bed, covered the quilt, blinked his eyes, hummed his small nose and said, "why doesn''t mom choose uncle Si? It''s better to choose uncle Si!" Why Yining didn''t know the little girl''s mind outside, and Li Yunze naturally didn''t think of it. "Then you..." he Yining broke the confrontation under the silence again, and his fingers were twisted by himself. "Do you want to recognize one by one?" Chapter 1331 "Why don''t I admit it?" Li Yunze immediately gnashed his teeth and asked, "one by one is my daughter!" "But she doesn''t seem to like you very much..." he Yining''s voice is like mosquito hum. As soon as Li Yunze heard this, he thought of resisting him one by one. Suddenly, his anger dyed his eyes and squeezed out from his teeth word by word, "he Yining, I really want to strangle you!" He Yining looked at Li Yunze and immediately understood his meaning. Just one by one reaction, if you suddenly tell one by one that Li Yunze is her father, the little girl must have a rebellious psychology. Even, it may be directly understood that they are getting married, so this father can only be a father! "Why not..." why would you rather take your advice, "start with getting along first?" Li Yunze rubbed his eyebrows with a headache. He didn''t know whether it was because he drank too much tonight or because he suddenly found something one by one, which disturbed his mind. Why should I rather see Li Yunze like this and get up and give him a cup of honey water. Li Yunze looked at the honey water, looked at he Yining, twisted his eyebrows and said, "tell me about her..." He Yining thought for a moment and said: "I have a little temperament, like handsome men, like to eat, like to stick to me, and sometimes think carefully..." after a pause, she dared not look at Li Yunze and said, "maybe because she is a single parent, she is a little sensitive." "Single parent?" Li Yunze immediately clenched his teeth, "why Yining, who is to blame for the ''single parent'' one by one?" He Yining glanced at Li Yunze and said instinctively, "you..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth. He really wanted to slap him to death. Of course, he was so angry that he just wanted to give himself a little comfort. He couldn''t really beat him to death. Li Yunze gradually calmed down. Because he calmed down, he was particularly uncomfortable at the thought of looking at his eyes one by one. "Now it''s like this, so we can only get along slowly..." Li Yunze looked at why Ning, sighed and got up. "What are you doing?" Why Ning asked subconsciously. "It''s late. Go home!" Li Yunze suddenly turned around. Just before he Yining reacted, he pressed her shoulder and leaned back, "of course, if you leave me here, I don''t mind creating another ''two two two'' "..." why did Ning''s face turn red at once, "what... What two, two, three?!" "Well, it''s OK. I can afford it anyway." Li Yunze''s voice was slightly dull after drinking and full of confusing magnetism. Why Ning''s face became more red, she pushed Li Yunze, "it''s very, very late, you go home quickly..." Her nose is full of Li Yunze''s breath, mixed with the aftertaste of wine. With Li Yunze''s words, why is Ning''s heart beating about to go wrong. Li Yunze looked at he Yining, who was blushing, and thought of what he had misunderstood one by one. At this moment, his body began to shout under the alcohol. "I really want to do you right here now!" Li Yunze clenched his teeth and squeezed his words out of his teeth. If it weren''t for one by one, Li Yunze would have to do it directly now. Why should he Ning Why Ning suddenly widened his eyes, his mouth moved and didn''t speak yet, but Li Yunze let go of her and slowly stood up straight. "Go to bed early!" Li Yunze sighed secretly, his eyes were frozen deeply, why should he Ning, and suddenly joked, "why, I didn''t do you, lost?" "I didn''t!" Why should I hasten to deny it. Because I feel guilty too quickly. Li Yunze looked at he Yining, smiled, turned and left. However, at the moment of opening the door, he subconsciously looked and walked to the small corridor in the bedroom one by one, with a touch of happy emotion across the bottom of his eyes. The night fell low, and the night in Los Angeles was still intoxicating. Different from the depression when he came, when Li Yunze left why Ning''s home, although he was lost because of the hostility one by one, he was basically happy. When Li Yunze was waiting for the red light, his fingers subconsciously tapped on the steering wheel, with joy in the rhythm. Beichen used to be happy when he was a father. Now he really feels his mood Really... Very happy! Li Yunze started the car and continued to drive to the apartment. His eyebrows and eyes soared, thinking about how to please one by one. ¡­¡­ With a flattering face, Chen Yu handed the peeled grapes to Li Jinxi. In that way, the dog leg can be comparable to the eunuch Li Lianying around Cixi. "Wife, do you want to eat anything else?" Chen Yu asked, "you don''t grow meat if you eat more. You just envy so many stars." Li Jinxi looked at Chen Yu coldly, "hum" and didn''t speak. Chen Yu sat down on one side, "wife, look... It''s very late. Why don''t we go to bed?" "I didn''t ask you not to sleep. If you want to sleep, go by yourself..." Li Jinxi said coolly. Chen Yu grinned, "but I want to sleep with my wife..." he said, and he was ready to hold Li Jinxi. Li Jinxi naturally won''t let him succeed. "Don''t you have a hot fight with that sexy actress these days? Go to sleep with her... That sexy actress will be happy and serve you well. Even if you want to play a heavy taste and wax whip, I guess she''s also happy." "But I only like to be with you..." Chen Yu stepped forward with a flattering face. Li Jinxi held his hand and covered his face with a cold hum, "don''t give me this set." Chen Yu sighed and scolded Li Yunze hundreds of times. It''s all his. If it''s not for the ambiguity, does he have a wife at night but can''t sleep with his wife?! Think about it, Chen Yu is also oppressed. Li Jinxi got up directly and went back to the bedroom without looking at Chen Yu. Anti lock is necessary. Chen Yu finally went to bed for the second time. In the morning, in order to please his wife, he got up in Li Jinxi and bought breakfast. Li Jinxi is an angry man, but he will never treat himself badly. The breakfast bought by Chen Yu is naturally to eat, but people... Naturally will not pay attention to it. If you don''t give him some color to see, he won''t be able to take the lead in the entertainment circle in the future?! A "buzzing" vibration sounded on the table, breaking the stalemate. Li Jinxi ''Teng'' looked up, looked at Chen Yu opposite fiercely, and said with gnashing teeth: "Oh, I''ve come to greet you so early... Why, do you want me to let out the bed directly and give it to you and the junior?" Chen Yu took the mobile phone and directly handed it to Li Jinxi. "I don''t even look at it. Do you think it''s ok? If it''s sent by some messy woman, I''ll swallow the mobile phone." This is a private number. Everyone who knows it has a good relationship with others. It will never be a gossip woman... Chen Yu is very confident! Chapter 1332 Chen Yu''s self-confidence is reasonable. Although he runs an entertainment company, he still has a clear distinction between scene and private life. Besides, he looks like a pair of playful intestines, but he is actually very loyal to dogs. For Li Jinxi, he really loves to the bone Before his marriage, he knew that Li Jinxi might have no children all his life, but he still insisted on her. He believes that love is a matter for two people, and love is not a matter of whether two people will have children. Therefore, his private number, unrelated people, is absolutely unknown. Li Jinxi read the message, which was sent by Gu Beichen. "Gu Beichen asked if you know Shi juexi?" Li Jinxi said unhappily. Chen Yu looked up and was stunned. He got up and took the mobile phone in Li Jinxi''s hand. He looked at her and said: I said it''s not a woman Li Jinxi snorted. He didn''t bother to talk to Chen Yu and continued to eat his own food. It''s just Beichen seems to have become mysterious since the death of Jane Mo and grandma Gu. She always feels that something is going to happen. Li Jinxi thought and looked up at Chen Yu, who was returning the text message. The corners of his mouth moved back and forth to ask. Finally, he endured it Well, they''re in the cold war! When the cold war is over, ask again. When did Chen Yu have such a good personal relationship with Beichen?! ¡­¡­ Li Yunze arrived downstairs of he Yining''s house very early. He looked at the food box on the co pilot, and a satisfied smile crossed the corner of his mouth. Why rather took one by one small hand out of the building, he saw Li Yunze leaning against the side of the car waiting for them. Because I don''t know, he Yining is very surprised and happy. "Mom, it''s that uncle again..." said one by one. I wonder how my uncle and daughter can always improve their relationship. But what he Yining didn''t expect was that one by one the "Uncle" was called for a long time. He Yining walked over with them one by one, "Why are you here?" "Send you to school one by one, and then send you to work..." Li Yunze looked at one by one. It was not his surprise last night. At the moment, it was all the kindness of his father''s nature to see his daughter. Unfortunately, little fairies are not rare at all. He Yining and one by one got on the bus and said that they were in a bad mood. Even if there were delicious food, it was not good. That uncle is obviously not good to his mother. Why does mother like that uncle? "One by one..." Li Yunze tried to get closer. "Do you know the largest amusement park in Asia in Haibin city? Do you want to go there? I''ll take you..." One by one, her eyes lit up, but it was just a moment. The little girl put up with it with little thought and leaned on the window and looked out. The meaning is obvious: the fairy doesn''t want to talk at the moment. He Yining was a little dignified. He looked at one by one and Li Yunze. Li Yunze also has some small losses, but children generally have a bad first impression and will have some rebellious psychology. Naturally, he will not blame his daughter. Who makes him, like Beichen, lose the child''s four years and give the child a bad first impression?! "Mom..." suddenly shouted one by one. "Huh?" "Give me your cell phone!" He Yining didn''t know what to do one by one, but he gave her his cell phone. One by one, the head hung down for a while in the phone book of He Yining''s mobile phone, then a call was sent out. "Who are you calling?" He Yining asked without much thought. One by one, she looked at he Yining. She didn''t know whether it was intentional or not. Her voice was very clear and said, "give it to Uncle Si!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± He Yining and Li Yunze were speechless at the same time. One by one, regardless of the two people''s expressions, just after the phone, sweet, smiled and shouted, "Uncle Si, I''m one by one!" Jin shaosi listened to the young voice, and his eyes became soft, "ready to go to school?" "Well, it''s already on the way!" One by one said, "did Uncle Si have breakfast?" Jin shaosi looked at the coffee in front of him. Just about to say it, he heard one by one small nose hum and said, "you must just drink coffee again, right?" Jin shaosi laughed, and his facial lines were much softer. "Alas, you don''t know to have breakfast without my mother and me!" Said one by one, looking like a little adult. Good guy As soon as this sentence was said, whether it was intentional or not, Li Yunze''s face was black and boundless. Why Ning''s mouth twitched and his face was speechless Smelly girl, when did I watch ace eat breakfast? What you said is too confusing! "After that, he and his mother were around uncle si one by one. Uncle Si naturally reminded him to have a good meal one by one!" Jin shaosi and 11 know her very well because they have been alone for many days. One by one, he immediately laughed happily. "Remind mom later and remind you to have breakfast every morning." One by one, he also "secretly" glanced at Li Yunze. Looking at Li Yunze''s tight chin, one by one careful thought was immediately satisfied. He Yining began to wail in his heart: Little ancestor, it''s chaotic enough. Can you stop pulling your mother into the water?! 11. Seeing Li Yunze unhappy, she was naturally happy. The little girl and Jin shaosi have been chatting. The voice is called dependence: "Uncle Si, I miss you one by one. Will you come to pick up one by one from school at night?" "OK..." Jin shaosi replied with a drowning voice. "Great!" One by one, I was very happy. I was still thinking about the amusement park that Li Yunze just said, and continued to ask coquettishly, "Uncle Si, there is a big amusement park in Haibin city." "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth. "Oh?" Jin shaosi didn''t know the little girl''s mind. He smiled and said, "Uncle Si will take one by one to play with his mother on the weekend, okay?!" "Oh, also..." Because he was too happy, he directly stood up, held the front seat and jumped, "Uncle Si is the best, and I love uncle si the most. If Uncle Si can become one''s father, it''s the best thing in the world!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Li Yunze felt that if his heart didn''t bear much, he must be angry with his daughter to have a myocardial infarction at this time. If he wasn''t in the car one by one, I''m afraid he couldn''t control it and brake directly on the main road He Yining is ready to cry without tears. She must have given birth to a fake daughter, which is specially used to make her feel bad One by one, don''t you feel that the temperature in the car is below zero?! He Yining has been afraid to see Li Yunze. She thinks she''s dead How miserable! Li Yunze gritted his teeth and looked in the rearview mirror first. He didn''t dare to see his he Yining, and then looked at one by one Beichen likes to be a father, and his son is God''s assistant. He likes to be a father, and his daughter is a professional who mends his knife! Chapter 1333 One by one, it was really the idea of Li Yunze with spirit that called Jin shaosi at the beginning, but later, because of the excitement, it was completely instinctive Naturally, Li Yunze choked several mouthfuls of old blood in his throat from beginning to end, almost internal injury. He Yining was bitter in his heart. Watching his daughter talking with Jin shaosi, he wanted to say: blame me?! When I finally got to the kindergarten, I said goodbye to Jin shaosi one by one and hung up. "Great, uncle Si said he would take me to eat ice cream cake... Cluck..." one by one, he floated out of the car happily without Li Yunze. Of course, he is also very backbone and ignores the delicious food brought by Li Yunze. In fact, it is because he reached an agreement with Jin shaosi to eat ice cream cake in the evening. Li Yunze only felt that a pile of daggers were shot from all directions and stabbed into his heart! The heart is so stuffed and painful. He Yining didn''t dare to look at Li Yunze. He hurried out of the car and sent them one by one to the teacher. "Mom, will you pick me up with Uncle Si in the evening?" One by one asked innocently. Why did Ning''s mouth twitch? She felt that she was sandwiched between her daughter and Li Yunze. She felt a little uncomfortable with sandwich cakes. "Hum, mom must want to date that Uncle..." one by one glanced, "anyway, I''m going with Uncle Si. If mom wants to date that uncle, go." "...." he Yining didn''t know how to answer. One by one stopped and looked up. "Mom, you''re dating that uncle. Can I live with Uncle Si tonight? Uncle Si''s bedtime story is so good that one by one likes it very much." He Yining secretly remembers that let Li Yunze go back and practice telling bedtime stories more "In fact, mom has to remember to pick me up on a date. She will really use two things at once." One by one advised, "you can go out with that uncle at ease. I''ll be very good with Uncle Si." He Yining has a headache, "say it at night." She sent them one by one to the teacher and looked back, At that time, she ran away quickly. When she came back, she found that she didn''t want to be with Li Yunze for the first time Can she go to the hospital by herself?! He Yining was forced to get into the car, and suddenly felt the cold air shooting at her. She swallowed secretly, secretly looked at Li Yunze, quickly took back her sight and said, "well, I''m going to be late..." Li Yunze looked back at he Yining in the back seat and said nothing. With a cold face, he started the car and drove to Shuya Along the way, the originally not spacious interior space of the car can''t breathe because of the depressed atmosphere. Until he stopped in the courtyard of Shuya hospital, he Yining slowly opened his mouth, "because one by one and ACE..." "Go first, don''t you?" Li Yunze looked at he Yining from the rearview mirror, and his voice was obviously tense. "He Yining, look at the performance of one by one, you will know your relationship with major Jin at ordinary times." He Yining was a little angry. However, it was understandable that Li Yunze was so angry at the thought of his performance one by one. She endured it, and then slowly said, "that afternoon, school is over one by one..." Li Yunze helped his forehead, with a heavy face. "He Yining," Li Yunze turned back and asked with a wrung eyebrow, "what do you want me to do now?" He Yining didn''t speak. When Li Yunze asked this, she knew that no matter what she did in the afternoon, it seemed inappropriate. "I''m the father of one by one. I want to give her what she wants. Naturally, I want to take the initiative." Li Yunze said calmly, "but if I have to ask her to go with me this afternoon and don''t let her go with Jin shaosi, she will only hate me more... Just say, what should I do?" He Yining didn''t dare to say anything. He bit his lip and said, "it''s all my fault..." "Yes! It''s all your fault!" Li Yunze felt uncomfortable. He Yining wanted to complain, but he also knew that he was also the problem. If he Yining and Jin shaosi could have been determined earlier, he would not have appeared. He was still in a fog. If he could accept he Yining a few years ago, there would be no single parent for several years One is different from Xiao Jie. He Yining and Jian Mo are also different. And his problem with Beichen on this issue... Is even different! He Yining didn''t want to tell herself because he had a child secretly. In other words, she thought there would be nothing about him from now on. Naturally, she treated the "father" one by one in a different way from Jane mo. Let one subconsciously think that he will not have his own father. Whoever is good to his mother and her in the future is his father''s mind. Beichen and Jian Mo are married. Coupled with Xiaojie''s single-minded desire to find his father, Beichen is right to do whatever he wants. Now he is in an awkward position. If he doesn''t handle it well, he will only be more disgusted with him one by one. If you know that he is his own father, it will lead to rebellious psychology, thinking that he abandoned her and his mother Li Yunze has a terrible headache. Looking at why he Ning feels guilty and blames himself, he is angry and can''t bear it. "You really pushed me into a dilemma." Li Yunze said in a heavy voice, "go to work first and let me think about it." "Yes." He Yining looked at Li Yunze and got off silently. Because her mind was on 11 and Li Yunze, she also forgot what was the response when she got down from a luxury car in the hospital at the moment. When he heard rumors spread all over the hospital, he Yining found that he was really in a mess recently. "What?!" Yan Miao widened his eyes and roared. Suddenly, he looked around and looked at his medical staff. With an apologetic look on his face, he asked in a low voice, "have you been found one by one? And have you been praising ace to your face?" "Yes!" Why would you rather rub the center of your eyebrows. "How did he react?" Yan Miao asked. "Why do you think so?" "Whether it''s good or bad, I know..." yanmiao said. "Moreover, you didn''t think you would hide it all your life, and you planned to tell him. However, such an accident is a headache." "The problem now is that what he is worried about is also what I am worried about." He Yining said. Yanmiao was silent. "Zihan has been sent abroad. Otherwise, she has the most ghost ideas. There must be a way." Because Fang Zihan was sent abroad, he didn''t know about the news yesterday morning. Otherwise, Fang Zihan, a gossip reporter, must have told he Yining at the first time. Naturally, there was no misunderstanding between father and daughter last night "Seriously, let him think about it himself." Yanmiao has some revenge mentality. "For so many years, he enjoys being chased by you and wants to get a daughter for nothing. Where are the good things in the world?" Chapter 1334 Why would you rather sigh and not speak. Yanmiao knows why it''s better to be strong everywhere, but when he meets Li Yunze, he admits to counseling. All things in the world are equal to each other. "Doctor Yan, Li Shao asks you to go and find him..." someone shouted yanmiao. Yanmiao is facing he Yining and says to let Li Yunze hurry first. It''s not so easy to be a father. At this moment, when someone shouted, yanmiao grinned secretly and said to he Yining on the other side of the phone, "it''s over. I''m in trouble." He Yining was worried at first. When Yan Miao said this, he burst out laughing. After scolding angrily, yanmiao hung up the phone and went to Li Yunze''s office. Although yanmiao privately said that Li Yunze was happy, she still didn''t have the courage to face him in the hospital OK, she''s a counselor, too! "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." Yanmiao pushed the door and went in. The chief doctor of neurology was also there. She stood silently aside. "From next week, I will put in Lin Lao''s operation preparation. As for the operation scheduled before, you will follow up." Li Yunze explained. "I understand." Li Yunze looked at yanmiao and continued to order some things without changing his expression. Then he motioned to the director to leave first. When the director left, he took a look at yanmiao, but after only one look, he left. "Li Shao..." yanmiao swallowed it secretly. "Sit down." Yanmiao pulled at the corners of his mouth, "that... No need." Li Yunze glanced at her and got up, "private conversation, not involving work." Yanmiao is complaining in his heart. It''s just a private conversation. Am I nervous?! Li Yunze made two cups of coffee and put one in front of yanmiao''s face. He then sat down, "say it, I don''t believe you don''t know." "Say, say what?" Yan Miao pretended to be silly, "what do I... Know?" Li Yunze smiled coldly at the corners of his mouth and didn''t speak. He quietly looked at yanmiao and drank coffee. He was very busy. Yanmiao clenched her teeth secretly and wanted to continue to dress, but under Li Yunze''s look very casual, in fact, she used her eyes to scold you. She said with a deathly attitude: "if Li Shao refers to one by one, I know, but I have nothing to say." Li Yunze didn''t speak and still looked at yanmiao. Yan Miao thought about Li Yunze hundreds of times and scolded himself secretly. Why do you want to stay in Huakang when you are a beginner? She doesn''t want to be a big guy like Li Yunze. Can''t any top three?! All right, now let yourself be trapped. After correcting his mind, yanmiao thought that he could not escape this disaster anyway. He simply said everything he wanted to say. It''s a big deal. Li Yunze takes revenge for public and private affairs. He will wear small shoes for her in the future "Li Yunze, but you let me say." Yan Miao straightened up and said, "well, since you want to find abuse, I won''t stop you." Li Yunze frowned slightly and watched yanmiao''s lips move back and forth. "Li Yunze, in fact, there is today. Why don''t you ask yourself?" Yan Miao said, "I think you know better than anyone how long Yining has loved you and how many things he has done that are humiliating or have no lower limit." Yanmiao snorted coldly, "before junior high school, Zihan and I didn''t know, but later we saw it in our eyes. Yining really used a youth to love you, but what about you?" "You don''t have, you not only don''t have a little bit of love, but also hate. You can''t avoid it... Even if you can''t avoid it, you treat each other coldly." "People are all emotional. Do you really think Yining''s heart is made of iron and won''t be hurt?" Deep in Li Yunze''s eyes, there are slight emotional changes "She''s sad you can''t see, because she left all her happiness to you." Yanmiao sneered and sneered, "when she is unhappy, she hides and cries alone. After crying, she continues to love you with her whole life." "Yes, love is a matter for two people. You can''t love her because you prefer to love you. It doesn''t make sense..." "But is the human heart really so cold? It''s too cold to give her a little warmth!" "If you don''t love, wouldn''t giving her more push her into despair?" Li Yunze spoke. Love now and not before are two experiences. Isn''t it also wrong to give hope without love?! Yan Miao frowned slightly and washed, but there was no way to refute. Because Li Yunze''s words are also reasonable. If he doesn''t love to give back hope to the women he pursues, it''s also a scum man. "I admit that you have done nothing wrong..." yanmiao is a calm person. "But Li Yunze, Yining''s love for you is crazy under obsession, engraved into the bone marrow and can''t be removed." Li Yunze does not refute this point. "In the end, although the matter between you and Qu Weiwei is also the matter between you two, Yining has gone a little too far, but it''s not incomprehensible, isn''t it?!" Yan Miao picked his eyebrow, "but when a love is hurt, he clearly knows that the result is love and can''t help it. He also flies moths to the fire. Even if he is black and blue, he still can''t give up you." Li Yunze picked up his coffee and sipped it. The memory of the past is vivid. He Yining was bored with how many things he had done in the past, but he also had a deep memory. Now looking back, it seems that he didn''t remember any women in his youth, just why Habit is sometimes a terrible thing, good or bad. He will lurk in your memory, so that when you recall, you will suddenly miss how much "Later, he family fell down." Yan Miao''s voice was dignified. "Yining has become an orphan. She has no home and no unscrupulous backing. She can only rely on herself for everything." Yan Miao''s eyes turned red when she said this, "but what can a rich family do? She has nothing but indomitable character under the love of her parents..." Li Yunze''s mood was also depressed. He lowered his eyes and slowly put down his coffee cup. He really didn''t care about some things. Naturally, he didn''t remember them carefully after doing them. When he family just fell down, he asked his father to deal with some things, but he didn''t say anything At that time, he thought... Anyway, there was always the friendship of growing up together, didn''t he?! "She tried to get into the University of Los Angeles. Although Los Angeles is not a famous university in Los Angeles, she can study medicine. There is also the University of medicine, isn''t there?" Yan Miao reddened his eyes, "but there is no one named Li Yunze in those universities of Medical University..." Yanmiao smiled and said coldly when he looked at Li Yunze again: "then... Her college life is not happy at all, is it?" Chapter 1335 Li Yunze recalled that when he Yining and yanmiao entered the University of Los Angeles, he was a senior. For a while, he Yining also took his class as a teaching assistant. At that time, he couldn''t figure out why she chose the Department of Medicine Although he didn''t seem to know, why would he rather learn what? Unhappy? He Weining was not happy because he Weining was! "Li Yunze, how can I tell you after knowing that I have children when I don''t have any Yining who can unleash myself wildly?" Yan Miao asked, "I tell you, do you humiliate yourself?" Yanmiao was a little desolate. He said coldly because of why he felt uncomfortable and the stinging pain of his nose: "Li Yunze, you can''t feel the mood and mentality of a person who has changed from a proud woman to one who depends on himself for everything." Li Yunze was silent, and his heart was hard. He Yining in the past, even if he loved him so much, he couldn''t learn to cook. But now she will Maybe it''s not as delicious as him, but she needs to learn to cook. Because she has to live and feed one by one. "If you can," said yanmiao, a little angry, even with the idea of being angry and Li Yunze in her heart, "I really hope I''d rather not choose you. Choosing Jin shaosi may be the best for her." "But one by one is my daughter," Li Yunze said slowly, "and why should the person in my heart be me!" Yan Miao laughed again, "so you can trample on her unbridled." "..." Li Yunze frowned slightly. He didn''t think he had anything wrong before. If he didn''t love, he should be clear. If he loved, he should be clear. He doesn''t like to play ambiguous, otherwise, with his identity, aren''t there many women around him?! Li Yunze endured the uncomfortable emotion in his heart and didn''t refute yanmiao. After all, it was really because of him that he Yining didn''t have any confidence in him. After one by one, he didn''t know it at all Even Beichen didn''t say it clearly, did he? If it wasn''t for his previous attitude towards he Yining, why didn''t Beichen say it clearly, but what did it express and imply to him? "Li Yunze, I really want to know one thing. Can you tell me clearly?" Yan Miao suddenly asked after saying that. Li Yunze looked at yanmiao and didn''t speak, just motioned her to say. "Are you just trying with Yining now, or do you really want to be with her?" Yan Miao asked seriously, "no matter what your answer is, I have no right to interfere in the affairs between you, but if you just try, I hope you will see that for you, you have not let go of yourself and her for so many years!" Yan Miao asked, but he didn''t expect Li Yunze to answer. She stared at Li Yunze deeply and got up, "Li Shao, I''ll be busy first." The words fell. Yanmiao didn''t stop at all. He turned and walked out Just when yanmiao came to the door, Li Yunze''s voice came gently but seriously. "Say try, how many reasons I have face." Li Yunze said, "yanmiao, I''m used to her. Maybe it''s because of habit. I''m not used to it after so many years..." Yan Miao looked back at Li Yunze and listened to him continue: "but I know the difference between want and don''t. I''m not a man who likes to play ambiguous with women!" Yanmiao agrees with this. After all, in a hospital, he basically has a lot of contact with Li Yunze. His scandal has not been as much as Gu Beichen! "When I met again, I found that she was not entangled around these years. In fact, I was not used to it..." Li Yunze continued. "Then I found that I didn''t like other men around her. Even, I wanted to be around her." After a pause, Li Yunze frowned slightly and felt that there was something wrong with his expression ability. "I say... Do you understand?!" Yan Miao smiled, laughing very recklessly, "understand." She nodded. "That is, when a man has a possessive desire for a woman, he says he cares." Li Yunze''s face was a little embarrassed. "I''m a little relieved to hear you say that..." yanmiao smiled kindly at Li Yunze, turned around, opened the door of the office and left. Yining, Li Yunze is really interested in you this time. Although I have never had love, I can see that he has you in his heart. No matter how quiet and cover up one''s eyes are, they can''t be calm when saying love. ¡­¡­ While approving the official documents, Mr. Jin explained: "the dinner in the evening is postponed to tomorrow. In addition, the weekend is free." Su ruomin frowned slightly, "it''s with Los Angeles in the evening..." Before she finished, when Jin shaosi raised her eyes and looked at Su ruomin, she swallowed the words behind her. "OK, I''ll arrange it." Su ruomin sighed softly. Don''t think about it. It must have something to do with he Yining. The boss only shows no principle when he Yining comes across something, and he also ignores his work Jin shaosi handed the signed document to Su ruomin and got up, "I''ll go to the vineyard." "OK." Jin shaosi took Lu fan to the vineyard. Recently, the first batch of grapes will enter the wine making process after fermentation. At the press conference, the current winery and vineyard will be officially launched as in the past. Tan Zhonglang is busy. He sees Jin shaosi coming and asks him if he wants to try. "No, I haven''t done it for many years. It''s hand-made." Jin shaosi didn''t do it. He just watched Tan Zhonglang busy. After Tan Zhonglang finished his work, they went out of the cellar used to ferment grapes, walked in the vineyard and talked about the follow-up problems. "By the way," Tan Zhonglang thought of yesterday, "is Yining all right?" Jin shaosi frowned slightly. After sending Yining back last night, it was obvious that she didn''t look right. Later, he sent her a message and didn''t reply. He thought it would be better to leave her alone "She has been very strong since she was a child. Now after all these years, I think... She shouldn''t embarrass herself too much." Jin shaosi said so, but he didn''t think so in his heart. After all, it''s about the life of parents and the whole fate of he family. Will Yi Ning really not embarrass himself? "In fact, what happened in those years was just speculation, not necessarily..." Tan Zhonglang sighed, "but after the car accident, the internal problems of he family came out, so..." "After all these years, do you still have a chance to find out?" Jin shaosi suddenly asked. Tan Zhonglang stopped and looked at Mr. Jin with an abnormal look. "What do you want to check? The death of the master and his wife?" Chapter 1336 Jin shaosi took a look at Tan Zhonglang, and then his sight fell back in front. The dark purple black grapes over there were particularly attractive in the sun. "After all these years, I don''t know what the reason is..." Jin shaosi sighed softly. "I just don''t want to make Yining sad because there is nothing." Tan Zhonglang looked at Jin shaosi and knew what he liked. At the beginning, ASI didn''t like to be so cold and domineering now, but he also treated people coldly and alienated, but he was alone in the affairs of the young lady. He didn''t say it, but he always did it silently. At that time, he was also moved by his mind. Naturally, he could understand ace''s actions. "Yes, after all, if it''s not because of the young lady, but the young lady blames herself and feels guilty after listening to me, she always......" Tan Zhonglang blames herself. "I didn''t expect the young lady to go to the winery suddenly yesterday. I should pay more attention." "I don''t blame you." Tan Zhonglang pulled down the corners of his mouth and was silent. Jin shaosi stayed in the vineyard for lunch at noon and talked with Tan Zhonglang about the development direction of the winery and vineyard. He didn''t leave until after 4 p.m. "Boss, go directly to the kindergarten?" Lu fan asked. After looking at the time, Mr. Jin said, "go to the stationery store first. Last time I gave a certain schoolbag, I should have arrived. Take it and go to school!" "OK." Lu Fan responded, started the car and left the vineyard. Tan Zhonglang looked at Bentley mushang who had left, his face fluctuated slightly, and soon restrained his expression. As soon as the man turned and walked a few steps, Tan Zhonglang''s mobile phone rang. When she took it out and saw that it was Qu Weiwei''s, Tan Zhonglang suddenly had a layer of joy in her eyes. "Weiwei..." Tan Zhonglang shouted excitedly after picking it up. "Busy?" Qu Weiwei asked. Tan Zhonglang said hurriedly, "I''ve just finished my work. What''s the matter?" "Let''s see if you have time for dinner these two days?" "I have time today..." Tan Zhonglang''s voice was eager. "OK, I''ll meet you at the hanging garden of the Los Angeles Hotel at 6:30 tonight." Qu Weiwei said with a smile. "Good!" Tan Zhonglang answered, "see you in the evening." Qu Weiwei hung up the phone and then put her mobile phone on her desk. Her eyes were filled with a touch of Yin Li under the sneer. "Dang Dang!" Qu Weiwei looked at Du Peishan who pushed the door in and heard her say, "Cheng Guang''s venture capital has been sent to the factory. The factory said that it should be OK in two months." "Yes." Qu Weiwei answered and immediately got up, "I''ll go out." "OK..." Qu Weiwei drove to a cafe near Runze garden. When she passed the kindergarten, she looked subconsciously. After talking to Li Yunze yesterday, how will he react? Will you be angry and separate from he Yining? Qu Weiwei took back her sight when the car passed the kindergarten gate, with an urgent and unwilling look in her eyes. After entering the cafe, Qu Weiwei saw Xia Xiao drinking coffee at a glance. She walked over and ordered a cup of coffee before saying, "you really don''t want this child?" "You know." Xia Xiao drinks coffee recklessly. Qu Weiwei doesn''t care about Xia Xiao, but she needs to make sure! "However, in your current position, this girl is a little embarrassed." Qu Weiwei said she understood, "you''re still young. You have more opportunities to have children in the future. It''s best to win a man in one fell swoop next time." "I think so too..." Xia Xiao put down his coffee cup. "I''m going to flow away in a few days." "Well, it''s better to do it as soon as possible, otherwise it''s not good for your health." Xia Xiao looks at Qu Weiwei. Although she knows that everyone has interests, she still likes her very much. Women who want to stand firm and position in the upper class often... Need some small skills. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze will devote himself to Lin Lao''s operation preparation next week. In addition, he will study the disintegration of silence as soon as possible. He has arranged some important things in the hospital in the near future. Now, there is another one-to-one problem. Li Yunze''s time can''t be the same as before, but needs to be on time. Li Yunze went to the hospital parking lot and called he Yining as he walked, "I think I should take the initiative." "You mean..." why do you hesitate to ask, "go and pick up one by one?!" "Yes." Li Yunze got into the car and said, "as long as you are firmly on the same line with me, I think one by one should look at your face and compromise..." he fastened his seat belt, "you can get along only when you are together, can''t you?!" "Yes." Why Ning nodded hurriedly to express his approval. "I''ll pick you up first..." He Yining looked at the time, "OK." Li Yunze hung up and drove directly to Shuya hospital. After receiving he Yining, they went to the kindergarten one by one. In the past, he Yining basically came to pick up one by one. Suddenly, there were many tall and handsome Li Yunze around him. Looking at Li Yunze with a trace of evil charm, he immediately attracted the attention of parents who came to pick up their children near the kindergarten. He Yining was delighted, of course, not because of everyone''s amazing eyes, but because he accompanied her to pick up one by one, which she had dreamed for a long time. Li Yunze has never felt like this. Before yesterday, the next generation of Li family was in a "no" state. At most, he just looked at the interaction between Gu Beichen and Jian Jie, and couldn''t feel the feeling of being a father at all. But at this moment, he looked calm, in fact, his heart was already turbulent joy It was a very strange feeling, just like the traction under the blood, which made him excited involuntarily. However, Li Yunze found that he had not been excited for two minutes before he was depressed by a wave of critical blows First of all, Jin shaosi arrived. Seeing Li Yunze, shaosi Jin frowned slightly and looked at he Yining. He Yining nodded, meaning that Li Yunze already knew one by one. As soon as the two men met, they confronted each other with electric light and flint. He Yining was surprised "Cough," he Yining said. "Well, I''ll go ahead and wait one by one. You... Just wait here!" Stay away from men''s battlefield to ensure safety! Besides, she has to find a way to let 11 and Li Yunze go later She doesn''t want things to get trickier and trickier!! Jin shaosi looked at he Yining who left, took back his sight and looked at Li Yunze casually but alienated, "come to pick up one by one?" After a pause, he said again, "but one by one said this morning that I would come and pick him up..." "Pick up my daughter, you are very positive!" Li Yunze sneered. Jin shaosi still smiled, "I know her and I''m more positive than you." Li Yunze''s face changed slightly, but it was only a moment, and he recovered his calm, "Oh?" He chuckled, "I know you so positively... Don''t you have any ideas about my daughter?" Paused, "don''t covet her. I won''t agree with uncle''s love." "Don''t worry," Jin shaosi said with a smile as his eyes gradually darkened. "I love one by one. After all, the person I want... Is Yining!" His words just fell, and Li Yunze was cold and handsome. I saw two men who looked not simple and full of momentum. They ignored the confrontation of others outside the kindergarten and seemed to have a fighting posture until a call came Chapter 1337 "Uncle Si, miss you one by one!" Li Yunze felt that he had been critically hit again and hurt internally One by one, after shouting happily, the little figure threw himself around Jin shaosi''s leg and smiled with a soft waxy smile on his back. In that way, let alone heartache. He Yining immediately wailed in his heart and affirmed that she had definitely given birth to a fake daughter! Just now, when Mingming received 11, he explained that even if he was helping his mother tonight, could he have dinner with Li Yunze or something? Although 11 was a little unhappy, he promised Why is Ning afraid that after seeing Jin shaosi one by one, he will immediately forget to promise himself, and told him that when he saw Jin shaosi, he must be a little reserved and not exaggerate. But What''s going on?! He Yining has a feeling that he wants to escape. He doesn''t even look at Li Yunze He Xinyao, you really killed your mother! Li Yunze''s face was very black, especially in the depths of his eyes, he forcibly darkened the sky that had not been dim. Jin shaosi''s indifferent eyes crossed Li Yunze with a winner''s gesture, lowered his eyes and rubbed his little head with a soft smile, "I miss you too..." "Really?" One by one, his eyes lit up. "Of course," Jin shaosi said seriously, "after all, you think so of me. If I don''t think of you, won''t I live up to your miss?" "Giggle..." one by one immediately laughed happily. Li Yunze looked at Jin shaosi. In the mouth of Chen Yu, the Jin family in Brunei had a cold-blooded and ruthless way to win the Jin family. Now he was playing a good game with his daughter... Selling Meng?! ha-ha! Li Yunze sneered and said nothing. Because it is clear that he is now the survival of the fittest, squeaking will only increase his disgust in his daughter''s mind. Li Yunze''s faint sight rowed to he Yining, who wanted to avoid. Although he knew that it was unkind to blame her, he didn''t feel good watching his daughter throw herself into the arms of a man who loved his woman. He Yining came forward with a stiff head, looked at Li Yunze and Jin shaosi, and then pretended to pull one by one One by one, he Yining looked at her eyes. Thinking of what my mother just told me, my little face collapsed a little The little girl secretly glanced at Li Yunze and looked at major Jin. She was actually tangled in her mind. When she came back to Los Angeles, the first thing she liked was the handsome doctor. However, uncle Si is also very handsome, and is also good to his mother... The doctor millet is not good to his mother at all. She is also handsome, but now she likes uncle si more and hopes uncle Si can become a father! Thinking, I looked at he Yining one by one. Under the embarrassment, I wanted to be with Jin shaosi, and I was afraid that my mother would be sad. The little girl''s black eyes suddenly turned and worried. Under the doubts of he Yining and Jin shaosi, they suddenly pulled Li Yunze''s hand one by one and walked to a tree not far away Jin shaosi has a slight loss in the bottom of his eyes. Is it father and daughter''s nature or Yining''s expectation?! I''m so relieved to buy you milkshakes one by one! Just, a lost too early, a happy too early "I have something to tell you..." asked Li Yunze, looking up at him one by one. Not wanting to look up one by one, Li Yunze slowly squatted down and asked with a smile in the way of looking down at her line of sight: "what?" "If you tell your mother to let me eat with Uncle Si and live with Uncle si..." one by one, his expression is very serious, "I''ll eat with you tomorrow!" Even if Li Yunze guessed what the little girl wanted to say, when he heard it, he was hit again! "Okay?" Seeing that Li Yunze didn''t answer one by one, he asked again. "What if I disagree?" Li Yunze tried to ask. One by one smiled, but it was fake and pulled down the corners of his mouth: "then I won''t eat with you today, and you will lose the chance to eat with your mother!" The little girl talks with him first and then threatens him?! Li Yunze faced Gu Lingjing''s daughter, and suddenly he was unable to laugh or cry. When Li Yunze didn''t answer one by one, he was actually very nervous. Because, in order to make my mother not sad, if the uncle doesn''t agree, the final result will be that she will accompany me to dinner. Li Yunze looked at one by one, a little, just a four-year-old girl''s mind. How can he hide it from adults?! Naturally, he knew that if he didn''t agree, there would be no big waves. Just "One by one, I agree with your request, not because Yining will end up unhappy because of you." Li Yunze said calmly, "I''m just unhappy because I don''t want you to lose, okay?" 11. I didn''t expect Li Yunze to say so. I didn''t react to him for a moment and blinked. "Remember to keep your word. If I promise your terms, you must fulfill your promise." Li Yunze said that, probing his hand, he wanted to touch his little face one by one. However, on the way, he saw the small mouth gradually rising one by one, his heart was astringent, and slowly dropped his hand. "Go..." One by one, he looked at Li Yunze and ran to Jin shaosi without saying anything. When she got to Jin shaosi, she took his palm, looked back at Li Yunze who got up, and said happily to he Yining, "Mom, do you want to be with us?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Why Ning''s mouth twitched. She didn''t know what she said to Li Yunze one by one, but her daughter was born by herself, and she could guess. Li Yunze is a black line on his face. This black daughter is sure it''s him?! Of course, why didn''t she go with Jin shaosi in the end? She knew the importance was one, and she didn''t want Li Yunze to be embarrassed. One by one, I got into the car of major Jin. Why would I rather get into the car of Li Yunze. The people who watched this scene at the kindergarten gate were wondering and talking, but everyone''s discussion turned to discussion. It was someone else''s business, so it was just a topic to satisfy their bad thoughts. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles Hotel, sky garden. As a landmark hotel with a long history in Los Angeles, it is located in the second worst place in the east of Los Angeles. Having dinner in the sky garden at night, you can overlook the beautiful scenery of Los Angeles and see the fishing fire spots on the Los Angeles River. It is a place that many people like to come. However, not everyone can afford the consumption here. Qu Weiwei looked at Tan Zhonglang opposite and asked with a smile, "are you still used to going back to the vineyard? Isn''t there any psychological burden?" Chapter 1338 Tan Zhonglang''s face obviously changed a little, but he soon converged and cleaned up. He took the red wine glass in front of him and sipped it. The taste was very good. He looked at the bottle of red wine on the table and then at Qu Weiwei. He knew that she was different from her before, but he couldn''t put his mind on her at all. Even if, whether in the past or now, he knows very well that Weiwei doesn''t like him. "It''s ok..." Tan Zhonglang said. "After all, they are familiar with each other, and ASI also asked me to let go. There are no shackles. For me, I can play a lot of freedom." "That''s good..." Qu Weiwei said with a smile. "I think Yining is also very lucky." Tan Zhonglang''s heart moved and didn''t answer. Qu Weiwei tilted her head and looked at the Los Angeles River in the distance. "It seems that he''s coming back soon..." Hearing her words like this, Tan Zhonglang''s face changed uncontrollably, and her eyes even looked at Qu Weiwei with some complexity and horror. He twitched at the corners of his mouth. Several times, he wanted to say something, but unfortunately, he couldn''t say anything. This is a secret, a secret that only he knows, but unfortunately, he can''t tell anyone. Even if the secret burns his heart, he can wake up in his sleep every day. "Weiwei..." Tan Zhonglang shouted dryly. Qu Weiwei looked back at Tan Zhonglang. Her dimple was like a flower, noble and elegant. "It took me so many years of hard work and hard work to get to where I am today." Qu Weiwei pulled at the corners of her mouth with self mockery. "You saw it most clearly from the beginning, didn''t you?" Tan Zhonglang''s originally aroused emotion gradually calmed down. He just looked at Qu Weiwei''s line of sight and became more and more complex. "Here, I never thought before that I could sit here easily..." Qu Weiwei picked up the wine glass and shook it gently. "These are all obtained by my efforts, and what about her "Whether it''s Li Yunze, Jin shaosi, or even... Children." Qu Weiwei sneered, "it''s easy to get." "You and Li Yunze..." Tan Zhonglang endured and asked. "Broke up." Qu Weiwei smiled sadly, "even if I liked him at the beginning, but because of Yining, I never expressed anything... Li Yunze wanted to be with me. You know how happy I was." Tan Zhonglang was silent and even resisted to think about Qu Weiwei''s happiness. "But because of Yining, I was advised to go abroad for further study." Qu Weiwei''s smile became more and more desolate. "After going out, Yining took advantage of the weakness... When she came back, she broke up with me and met me, and Yining had his children." Tan Zhonglang looked at Qu Weiwei painfully, "Miss, she..." "Miss? What is she, miss?" Qu Weiwei asked with a sneer, with tears in her eyes. "She killed her parents for Li Yunze, but she can also pretend to be with Li Yunze without knowing. Really, I especially want to know what kind of mood she felt after escaping from the winery and vineyard for so many years and taking Li Yunze''s children back." Tan Zhonglang looked at Qu Weiwei. "The accident between the master and his wife is really..." he couldn''t help swallowing, "is it really because of the young lady?" Qu Weiwei smiled coldly and didn''t say it clearly. She just slowly raised her goblet and drank a mouthful of red wine. Her vision was a little blurred and fell in the distance, "isn''t it? What?! it''s all the past... Isn''t it?" Tan Zhonglang''s heart churned uncontrollably. He twisted his eyebrows with dignity. At first, he was just suspicious, but it turned out to be ¡­¡­ "I think I''ll break the appointment one by one tomorrow." Li Yunze said with some evil spirits as he ate. He Yining looked at Li Yunze, "why?" She frowned slightly. "Shouldn''t it?" Li Yunze said "ha ha" and expressed his displeasure: "then you see, tomorrow, she will say ''I said tomorrow'', after all, tomorrow after tomorrow, there are so many tomorrow..." Why should I rather twist the center of my eyebrows and feel that although there are many ghost hearts and eyes, it should not be?! But when tomorrow, one by one really answered Li Yunze like this, why should I rather have a black line on my face. Li Yunze was calm. Suddenly, he felt "fooled" by his daughter, which was also a small sentiment. Well, my daughter, the little lover of my last life. It is estimated that he was not very good to his little lover in his last life, so the little lover came to torture him in this life. Forget it, he owes the debt of his little lover in his previous life, and it seems that he owes the love of his lover in his life. What else can he do?! He doesn''t believe it. He can''t cover this little lover! Li Yunze''s offensive is fierce and pervasive. Unfortunately, he has a strong rival in love and is still a daughter support group. He said that women love themselves and their daughters are their own. He doesn''t believe that he can''t occupy this "highland"! However, when Li Yunze found that he wanted to personally send one by one to the airport to meet with major Jin and go to the large seaside amusement park he said, he said he was not depressed. It was all a lie. Why did Jin shaosi take advantage of his idea. "Don''t be too sad. After all, it makes sense that girls are outgoing and their daughters don''t like you." Jin shaosi left this sentence to Li Yunze indifferently. Even, he looked at why he Ning with some meaning. "Some things can''t be given up even if they are born to be outgoing..." Li Yunze is unwilling to show weakness and is indifferent to it. "For example, love and family affection!" The two men, Jin shaosi and Li Yunze, looked at each other and smiled. On the surface, the clouds were light and the wind was light, but in fact, the undercurrent was turbulent. Jin shaosi indifferently took back his sight and picked up one by one to prepare for the security check. One by one smiled and waved at he Yining and said sweetly, "mom is fine at home. One by one and uncle Si will bring you gifts when they come back." Then he looked at Li Yunze, thought for a while and said, "bye, uncle!" "..." Li Yunze felt that his hospitality for a few days was a little blind. One by one, he took back his sight, put his arm around Jin shaosi''s neck and asked, "Uncle Si, why don''t you ask your mother to go together? I asked, and you didn''t express strong ideas in the end. Don''t you like your mother?" Jin shaosi smiled, "I like it very much." "Then why?" "Because my mother comes, that uncle will come with me, and everyone will have a bad time." Jin shaosi said, "finally, let''s have fun one by one." Jin shaosi did think so, but the little girl was moved. Uncle Si would give up the chance to play with his mother for her Uncle Si, you are so kind that you will help you one by one! No one knows what''s in his heart at the moment. Jin shaosi didn''t think of it. Don''t mention Li Yunze and he Yining who are returning at the moment. "I also like steamed eggs," Li Yunze said suddenly. "It seems that we can study some tricks at the weekend." He Yining was suddenly a little jealous. She looked at Li Yunze and felt some loss spreading Chapter 1339 Why should I rather eat at the corners of my mouth and secretly feel sick in my heart: I also like to eat. Why didn''t I see you make it for me?! These days, Li Yunze is very attentive to her and one by one, but the purpose is one by one. If Li Yunze hadn''t been with her first and then found one by one, she almost thought Li Yunze was with her because of one! "What are you thinking?" Li Yunze looked sideways at why he Ning. "Nothing..." he Yining replied bitterly. Li Yunze saw through he Yining''s mind and didn''t pierce it. He just took back his sight and said faintly: "suddenly, I found that you have been to the weekend with Jin shaosi one by one, and I have contracted you for the whole weekend." Why should Ning look at Li Yunze Li Yunze''s evil spirit hooked the corner of his mouth, looked at why Ning and said, "my daughter is still my father''s'' intimate ''little cotton padded jacket." "..." why did Ning twitch at the corner of his mouth, "I''m convinced that you comfort yourself like this." Li Yunze''s smile deepened at the corners of his mouth, slightly leaned over to he Yining, but looked at the one in front and said, "how are you going to spend the weekend?" "Read!" He Yining didn''t respond, but said very seriously, "although he is now in gynecology, he has been transferred, but the professional title evaluation has not been tested yet..." Li Yunze said "en" without interrupting why Yining. However, when he Yining finally found that after entering the urban area, the route was not her home route, but the direction of Li Yunze''s apartment, he frowned slightly. "I said that the professional title examination is coming. I want to go home." He Yining said deliberately. Li Yunze glanced at her and said, "my daughter is so considerate to let us live together. If I fail to live up to her kindness, isn''t it a sin?" "..." why did Ning twitch at the corners of his mouth. "Besides, someone has to eat his daughter''s vinegar. If I don''t calm down, I''ll fight on the two lines of one big and one small. It''s my own pain!" Li Yunze deliberately sighed, "I think it''s my fault. Who has been slow for so many years?" He Yining''s face was a little red. "When did I even eat my daughter''s vinegar?" "I didn''t say you, I said someone!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Seeing why Ning''s face was flat, Li Yunze, who was suffocated by his daughter, smiled at the corners of his mouth. That kind of smile, with a comfortable casual, but in an instant, it spread across the cheeks and dyed the fundus of the eyes. ¡­¡­ Yanmiao and Fang Zihan are sweeping the snack street. While eating, they haven''t left the topic of why Ning and Li Yunze. "I''m pretty good at scoring Li Yunze now." Yanmiao said calmly, "before, because Yining didn''t like this person, now think about it, he was right." "If you don''t like it, don''t be ambiguous. I agree with that." Fang Zihan stuffed an octopus ball into his mouth, "but according to Li Yunze''s performance these days when I''m away, should this be used to Yining?" "I don''t think so..." yanmiao nodded. "I think Yining''s previous behavior made him produce instinctive resistance, so as to cover up his hongluan''s heart." "Sure enough, love enemies are the best way to stimulate possessiveness." Fang Zihan said with a pair of understanding. Yanmiao suddenly wants to laugh. Why do they think it''s a little funny that the two single Wang Wang are talking about love here? "Hey, isn''t Qu Weiwei a demon recently?" Fang Zihan frowned and said, "I don''t know why. I always feel uncomfortable when she suddenly comes back." Yan Miao shrugged. "I''m an upper class person now. I don''t think I can see it. Now I''m just a little doctor''s Yining." "Yes!" Fang Zihan left her mouth and was going to buy milk tea at a stall in front of her. Suddenly, she saw a shadow and her eyes widened in an instant. "Hey, the front is not what you like..." yanmiao saw Fang Zihan suddenly turn around and turn back, and shouted strangely. "Go!" Fang Zihan didn''t have time to explain and didn''t dare to turn back. He hurriedly dragged yanmiao back. However, it is still a little late. "Fang Zihan..." The faint sound was not obvious in the noisy snack street, but it fell heavily on Fang Zihan''s heart like a hammer. Her face was broken by bitterness, and she was unable to cry. Paralysis, why did his noble, elegant and dominant man appear in such a snack street?! This is unscientific Yanmiao looked at the man who came over indifferently. He was over 180 in height. He looked very deep and handsome. He felt a little mixed blood or a few. He was clearly wearing a simple polo shirt and trousers, but he had a temperament of forbearance and abstinence. Yanmiao looked at a circle of men and looked at Fang Zihan vaguely Fang Zihan was not in the mood to deal with yanmiao''s ambiguous sight. He just turned slowly with a hard face and looked at the man. He raised his hand with an ugly smile at the corner of his mouth, "Hey, editor in chief... What a coincidence!" "The man looked at Fang Zihan with deep eyes......". Fang Zihan wanted to cry without tears. Some of them accepted their fate, but struggled and said, "editor in chief, you see... It''s time to get off work. My friends and I haven''t eaten yet. You''re always bad... Ah!" Suddenly, Fang Zihan slightly bounced away and looked at the big palm stretched out in horror. The man smiled. This time, the extremely fast finger belly wiped on the corner of Fang Zihan''s mouth, then took back his eyes and looked at them. "Lie, remember to wipe your mouth first!" "..." Fang Zihan twitched at the corners of his mouth. Yan Miao held back her smile and wanted to remind Fang Zihan that she was still holding a box with only one octopus ball left in her hand. "Miss," the man looked at yanmiao, "do you mind lending your friend to me to deal with some personal problems?" Yan Miao looked at the requesting eyes projected by Fang Zihan, and then looked at the man, "it depends on what personal problem." The man looked at Fang Zihan thoughtfully and was about to speak. Suddenly Fang Zihan came forward and pulled his arm. He hurried to yanmiao and said, "Yanyan, I''ll deal with it first and meet and talk later." Put down his words, Fang Zihan hurriedly dragged the man who succeeded in the treachery on his face and left Yan Miao looked at two figures, one tall and one short, with height contrast, leaving, and said, "there''s a problem!" ¡­¡­ He Yining knew that Li Yunze had a good talent, but he didn''t think that the steamed eggs he made were delicious, smooth, delicate and refreshing. They were almost better than sister-in-law Feng''s. Li Yunze''s vision gradually deepened as he looked at why he would rather eat satisfied and happy Li Yunze didn''t admit that he could do this before. That''s because he Yining has the same dedication to steamed eggs. When I learned to cook, I studied it unconsciously. Suddenly Li Yunze''s sight changed from deep to a flame, and he Yining, who was eating the beautiful food, was roasted by such a hot heat and looked at him strangely, "what''s the matter?" Chapter 1340 Li Yunze didn''t speak, just a pair of eyes looking at the little egg soup adhered to the corner of his mouth The fiery heat that stirs the heartstrings seems to be filled with the blood of the whole body. After boiling, something is going to gush out. He Yining''s face turned red subconsciously when he was seen by Li Yunze''s angry sight. She looked at the steamed egg and then Li Yunze She didn''t just eat, did she?! I was thinking, why should I say "Oh", the man had been caught in Li Yunze''s arms. Before she could react, the handsome face had been bullied and oppressed "Sizzling" came a soft, inaudible sound. Why would she rather feel that the skin at the corners of her mouth was the same as an electric shock? When the tip of her tongue with a thick breath swept through, she felt numb! That kind of crispness was like electricity. Her whole body trembled slightly, and her face turned red in an instant. He He would He Yining''s brain has been unable to think. The kind of intimate behavior that can no longer be intimate has made her heartbeat uncontrollable. Li Yunze appreciated the emotional changes of he Yining. The eyes that still spit fire have faintly shown the color of lust Single men and few women, dry firewood and fire, and it''s a relationship in progress Kiss, as if there were omens, but it seemed to come suddenly. Touching, as if to enhance each other''s feelings and feelings, makes the two people who kiss hot, and their bodies start to catch fire When the clothes are lifted, the pants buckle is untied Capture territory, it''s natural! The heat is escalating. The room is full of beautiful scenery under ambiguity, which stirs up the men and women who have each other. They can''t stop their actions at the moment and deeply feel the enthusiasm under the integrated movement. Night, very long. Men and women who are not disturbed on weekends, every place in the room may become a place for them to express their special feelings When she was paralyzed by Li Yunze''s tenderness, at that moment, she was happy and had never been happy. However, when you realize what is called "happiness begets sorrow", why should you suddenly find that some in your life should not be yours? Even if you force it, you will find that you can''t get it in the end. The next day, the early sunshine in Los Angeles penetrated the clouds and projected on the two people hugging each other on the bed. Why Ning whined, arched in Li Yunze''s arms, found a comfortable place to continue to sleep. Li Yunze woke up by her actions and looked at the people in his arms. At this moment, he felt unspeakable happiness and satisfaction. That''s why Beichen and Jian Mo can''t live without that feeling after two years of marriage?! Well, it''s really nice to have a woman who wakes up in her arms in the morning. "Good morning..." he Yining felt Li Yunze wake up and hum. She was really tormented by Li Yunze last night. The whole person was the same as falling apart. Now she moved and her whole body was aching to death. "Good morning!" Li Yunze opened his mouth gently and turned over. Facing he Yining, he hugged her and continued to sleep. On weekends, the hospital usually has nothing to do and is absent one by one. He Yining doesn''t need to worry about anything. Li Yunze suddenly had a bad heart to thank young secretary Jin. He helped him take his daughter and let him let go of his love with his wife! Well, wife Li Yunze smiled at the corners of his mouth. This word is very good! The more you think about it, the happier Li Yunze feels. He Yining felt Li Yunze''s mood, slowly opened his sleepy eyes, raised them slightly, and saw Li Yunze''s streamline and soft chin because of his smile "What are you laughing at early in the morning?" He Yining asked. Li Yunze moved again, put one hand under his head, looked down on the ceiling of the roof and said, "Yining, let''s get married when Lin''s operation is over?" Why Ning suddenly woke up and forgot the reaction, but his eyes instinctively turned red. "I suddenly thought of a way to please one by one," Li Yunze smiled. "Well, it can not only please her, but also make Jin shaosi Naya have no chance to ''use'' my daughter to deal with me..." As he spoke, he looked at he Yining. "Of course, we can have more time." "What?" He Yining''s voice was choked. Such Li Yunze, she had never dared to think before, even if she dreamed of marrying him every day. "One by one, I like playing with Xiaojie..." Li Yunze raised his eyebrow. "Then I''ll transfer her to Spencer to go to school and have a class with Xiaojie. Wouldn''t it be good?!" In this way, he not only flattered his daughter, but also refused Jin shaosi and his one-to-one cooperation to plug his heart. He can also let Yi Ning read books and get professional title certificates at ease, and he can cultivate his feelings more smoothly. Yining has to take care of one by one while preparing for formal transfer. It''s too hard. Kill with one stone! He Yining thought of what Jane Jie said one by one when she was transferred to Spencer. She thinks that if you have a father, you can go to Spencer school Why is Ning''s nose stinging bitterly? I don''t know if it''s doomed. She didn''t mention it, but Li Yunze did A weekend passed quickly. Li Yunze and he Yining live in a hot world, and they must live in peace and warmth. Eat together, cook together, read together, and study some medical cases and things together. Although Li Yunze is not good at Gynecology, he will also read books with he Yining. Occasionally, the two will communicate on some problems. Of course, they basically communicate, which becomes a deep communication in Gynecology I had a happy weekend, but when the little girl came back, she was a little lost. She found that without her mother, she was not as happy as she thought. Li Yunze took he Yining to the airport to meet one by one, although it was obviously unnecessary. "You may be transferred to Spencer next week," he Yining said on the way back. "Well, work with Xiao Jie!" One by one, his eyes lit up like a light bulb, "Mom, really?" He Yining looked at his daughter''s excited appearance and looked at Li Yunze who was driving. 11. It was a surprise that Li Yunze did it. The little girl pulled he Yining and asked in her ear, "Mom, did you tell that uncle?" Why rather shake his head, "I don''t!" "How could he know that I want to go to school with Xiao Jie?" One by one, he blinked his eyelashes curiously. Mom didn''t tell the uncle that the uncle knew?! One by one, I looked at Li Yunze, who was driving, and then looked at why Ning. Xiaozui got up because of the entanglement in his heart In one''s heart, Jane Jie went to Spencer because she had a father, and she... Too?! Chapter 1341 Why Ning zhe smiled and looked at Li Yunze in the rearview mirror. "Because," Li Yunze said slowly, "Xiaojie''s father and I are very good brothers. Just like you and Xiaojie, we have known each other since childhood and have grown up all the time..." he raised his eyebrow. "Naturally, I know you have a good relationship with Xiaojie." One by one, she became coy, the little wish in her heart was suddenly realized, and her dislike of Li Yunze suddenly became a little like However, such a change is too fast. I feel a little uncomfortable in my little mind. Li Yunze looked one by one in the rearview mirror and saw that her little hands kept wringing and the smile on the corner of her mouth deepened. This little move is all inherited, he Yining. "One by one," Li Yunze continued, "I grew up with Xiaojie every day and grew up together..." he paused. He looked in the rearview mirror and said, "just like your mother and me!" One by one looked at Li Yunze curiously, "Mom and you grew up together?" Li Yunze glanced at he Yining from the rearview mirror, took back his sight and said with a smile: "of course." One by one, he Yining was full of curiosity. When she just came back to Los Angeles, she showed her mother photos and didn''t hear her mother say she knew the uncle! One by one, she left her mouth and felt that the adult world was so complicated that she couldn''t understand it. However, the thought of going to Spencer made me feel very happy to be with Xiao Jie one by one. One by one, lying in he Yining''s arms, secretly looked at Li Yunze driving. His small teeth gently bit his pink lips, and there was joy on his pink face. In fact, this uncle is OK! As long as you don''t bully your mother! One by one, she gave Li Yunze some points in her heart. Instead of turning the camp soon, she found that she would be particularly unhappy without her mother around. And mom, it seems that she obviously likes this uncle! ¡­¡­ After a relaxed weekend, Li Yunze was completely busy day and night. At this time, he Yining knew that Jian Mo was not dead, and the so-called "Jian Mo" fished out of the Los Angeles River was not Jian Mo at all. Hearing the news, he Yining was very happy, not only because he liked the woman Jianmo, but also because Xiaojie wouldn''t lose his mother. Li Yunze integrated all the preparations in the early stage of Lin''s operation and tried to minimize the failure rate of the operation. On the other hand, because of the situation of Jian Mo, Li Yunze studied silence more and more deeply, trying to study the disintegration one day earlier Why can''t I help him in such a busy time? I can only give him the greatest support. At the same time, I also began to look at Lin''s medical records in my spare time, hoping to help Li Yunze to the greatest extent in the operating room. "I''ve already said hello to Spencer," said Li Yunze, observing the smear under the microscope. "I can report next Monday." "So busy, still have time to deal with this?" He Yining was joking. "You must be careful about your daughter." Li Yunze didn''t leave the microscope. "The list of Lin Lao''s operation team will be published next Monday. It is estimated that you will enter the team on Wednesday. There is no accident in the operation, and it will be arranged next Friday." "OK." Why should Ning answer, "just in time, go to Spencer one by one, and don''t worry about being unable to take care of her during the operation." Li Yunze got up with a smile in his mouth. Thinking about these days, although he was still not very friendly to him, it was obvious that his eyes would shine when he looked at him. This is a good start, isn''t it?! "What are you doing?" Li Yunze asked. "Work in the clinic." He Yining said, "are you still in the research room?" "Yes." He Yining loves Li Yunze. Although he doesn''t know what the medicine in Jian Mo''s body is, since he hasn''t solved the ingredients in the medicine, he thinks it''s very tricky. "I won''t tell you first. If you''re not busy, take a break..." why Ning''s voice is filled with heartache. Li Yunze gradually smiled, answered and hung up the phone. Without the vigour and vitality of Beichen and Jian Mo, he and Yining are the feelings that have flowed into their hearts since childhood... This feeling suddenly makes Li Yunze find that everyone''s love has its own track. ¡­¡­ Generally, there are fewer people attending the clinic in the afternoon than in the morning. Why Ning doesn''t read gynecological books these two days. He is basically studying Lin''s cases. "I''m afraid the most difficult thing for this operation is to cut off the blood supply temporarily. If the time is not accurate and the speed is not fast enough, it will cause the heart to stop beating..." he Yining said to himself as he watched. "Dong Dong!" "Jin..." why would you rather not lift your head. Xia Xiao took the registration form and sat down opposite he Yining. "What a coincidence, doctor he, it''s you again today." He Yining looked up and couldn''t remember Xia Xiao clearly. He just felt familiar. After all, there are so many patients in contact every day. If you want to remember, you need talent. He Yining and Xia Xiao smiled, then asked about the situation and gave her a checklist first. After finishing some examinations, he Yining looked at the checklist and frowned slightly. Xia Xiao''s own physical reasons affected the growth rate of the fetus, but it was not a big problem. She prescribed some drugs suitable for this stage that would not affect the fetus to Xia Xiao. "Three days of dose, three days later, remember to come and recheck." He Yining ordered. "OK, thank you..." Xia Xiao said, with sadness on his face. "Doctor he, is there anything wrong with my child?" "Small problems can be solved. Don''t worry too much..." he Yining shook his head with a smile. "To keep a happy mood, mother is under great pressure and is bad for the fetus!" Xia Xiao listened, nodded and left with the checklist and prescription after thanking her After Xia Xiao left, he didn''t go to the payment office, but went to the toilet first. She first looked carefully to see if there was anyone else in the bathroom, and then knocked on the innermost grid. The action of knocking was two hurried meals and then again. The voice inside quickly responded, "I have changed the prescription record in the system. You pay first and I''ll give you a list to get the medicine." Xia Xiao didn''t speak, but took out his mobile phone and transferred the account to the man. After receiving the account, the man handed the prepared list to Xia Xiao from the lattice door. It seemed that it was a printed list of prescriptions issued by Shuya Hospital Xia Xiao looked and left the toilet without saying anything. From beginning to end, he didn''t face the man. After leaving the toilet, Xia Xiao went directly to the payment office to pay, and then went to the pharmacy to get the medicine. Until she got on the bus, she looked at the medicine bag with the logo of Shuya hospital, and a strange smile crossed her eyes Chapter 1342 Time, Li Yunze has been busy for a week and has little free time to spend. This week, Li Yunze and he Yining didn''t see each other except for phone calls and text messages. One by one, I heard that I could go to Spencer on Monday. I had a happy weekend with a smile on my face every day. Jin shaosi went to the vineyard one by one on Sunday. I don''t know if it''s a coincidence that he winery officially launched a press conference on Monday. Because of its special significance, he hoped that he Yinhe would choose two wines from the cellar one by one as the wine specially named in the launching ceremony. No matter why she prefers wine or not, winery means different to her. Even if she has evaded for so many years, even recently, she deliberately ignored one thing and didn''t check it. He Yining called Li Yunze. It was not easy for her to come together with him and present them perfectly one by one. She didn''t want to affect her feelings because of something. He Ning''s voice is full of laughter. He Yining has insisted for so many years. Now, no matter what, Li Yunze is good to you. Should you also put down his inferiority complex that you once loved and strive to move forward with the best of yourself and the most firm love for him?! Thinking, the phone was answered. "Call me at this time. He Yining, I think I''ll be satisfied!" Li Yunze''s voice was a little dull without waking up. "When were you busy last night?" "Well, it''s more than seven in the morning..." He Yining looked at the time. It was just after nine o''clock. He felt guilty and distressed, "I woke you up..." Li Yunze turned over and slowly opened his eyes. "It''s all right." his voice was soft and helpless, "say it, what''s the matter?" "I''m going to the vineyard..." he Yining had a flattering smile on his face, even if Li Yunze couldn''t see it, "well, there''s ace." "Why do you remember to tell me today?" Li Yunze smiled at the bottom of his eyes. He is not a stingy person. If women are around him and eat too much fearless vinegar, he is stupid. "I''m afraid some people will be jealous," why should I rather pick my eyebrows. "There''s too much vinegar at home recently. No matter how much, I''m afraid it will expire!" Li Yun smiled silently, and there was an instinctive emotional overflow in the bottom of his eyes. Love is not imprisonment. He has never thought about what he would rather do... Besides, she can still participate in everything in he family, which is also a thought. "When I get up, I will go to the general manager of the army. It is estimated that I will be busy very late." Li Yunze said, "remember to eat with 11 and tell 11 that I''ll pick her up to Spencer tomorrow morning." "Good!" He Yining answered with a smile, "one by one will be very happy." She also has her mind. Only when she is more firm with Li Yunze, can she begin to have a subconscious affection for Li Yunze because of her. As for ace, it is possible to put down her obsession. She doesn''t want him to pay for her silently. Ace deserves a better woman. Yi11 looked at Tan Zhonglang with an open face. She didn''t understand what he said, but she seemed to be interested in the knowledge of wine. Her face was full of confusion. Jin shaosi and he Yining stood not far away and looked at each other. They both wanted to laugh. "It''s a pity that a Lang is talking there..." he Yining shook his head with a smile. "It''s all chicken and duck talking." Jin shaosi also smiled, took back his eyes and said, "after the press conference tomorrow, there will be a dinner at the Los Angeles Hotel in the evening. Long Xin will come to serve wine." "Long Xin?!" He Yining was surprised. Seeing Jin shaosi nodding, he was surprised. "Since several years ago, except for state banquets all over the world, she can be invited to serve wine. Isn''t she no longer involved in commercial wine serving?" Longxin is the Tang family, the first of the four families in Longdao. It is the only daughter of Tang Ye, the parent of the previous generation of Tang family. For some reasons, the person in power in Longdao of the previous generation was accepted as an adoptive daughter. Because the dragon family had an elder who loved wine and became crazy, coupled with some family reasons, she did not inherit the family business in the end, but became the world''s top sommelier because of her obsession with wine. "When I was in Jin''s house, I met her once. It''s a help." Jin shaosi said quietly. He didn''t say that the last time he returned to Brunei, in fact, it was mainly because long Xin went to Brunei. Because of Longxin and winery, he gave Li Yunze a chance... A chance that he might be out in the end. However, Yining... Even so, I have never regretted. A Longxin is the best advertisement for the restart of the winery. This is a gift from me. How can I regret it?! Because he was thinking about things in his heart, Jin shaosi looked at he Yining''s line of sight gradually deep. Such deep, with complex emotions, belongs to the heat of love. He Yining was a little embarrassed. When he didn''t know how to break it, he suddenly ran over one by one He Yining didn''t notice Jin shaosi''s expression just now. He hurried forward and studied the varieties of red wine named "WY" one by one. Jin shaosi scratched a touch of astringency at the corner of his mouth. Looking at he Yining''s back, his eyes gradually reached far-reaching Yining, you know? I want to possess you recklessly. Now I can do so with my ability. Even, I can make the weak love between you and Li Yunze vulnerable. I even think about it every day, but I don''t do it. Just because I''d rather be miserable than see you unhappy Do you understand? Why would you rather not be stupid? It''s not that you can''t feel the pay of Jin shaosi, but she can''t repay. Naturally, she can only choose to turn a blind eye. When I got home, it was very late. He Yining called Li Yunze and didn''t answer. He thought the meeting was silent, so he sent a text message, and then went to wash and sleep one by one. The little girl fell asleep with the good mood that she could go with Jane Jie tomorrow, and the corners of her mouth were raised. "One by one, dad is really good to you..." he Yining gently pulled one by one''s hair and sighed. "One by one, he is not the father you imagine, but... One by one, the real father." One by one, his small mouth opened, turned over, and saliva flowed from the corners of his mouth. He Yining looked at this one by one, smiled, took a paper towel and gently wiped it for her before turning off the light and leaving the small bedroom. Night, quiet and peaceful, full of an unusual breath ''squeak - '' The harsh brake sound sounded in Shuya hospital, disturbing the quiet night. "Where''s the doctor?" A man rushed into the emergency room with his stomach covered and a disheveled woman with a fierce look on his face. The original sleepiness of the medical staff was disturbed and hurried into the examination room When the doctor examined the woman, the man shouted angrily, "if there is anything wrong with my wife and children, I will make it difficult for the doctors in your hospital!" Chapter 1343 In the morning, the sun penetrated the clouds and lazily sprinkled on the city. In the morning news, the beautiful female anchor broadcasts the real-time news "Former commander of a group army, the country..." the female anchor first said a long list of titles before saying, "old Lin''s operation will be carried out in the military general hospital. All the members of the operation team have been determined today. Li Yunze, an expert in cardiothoracic, pulmonary and Neurosurgery, will take the lead." "Lin Lao''s operation has attracted the attention of all parties. The No. 1 chief once issued documents and attached great importance to it." "In this operation group, it is understandable that the main knife is Li Shao. The Deputy main knife will be joined by the authoritative experts and professors of the general army." The anchor skillfully broadcast, "and this time, as Li Shao''s assistant, Dr. he Yinhe of Shuya hospital has attracted extensive attention." "Dr. he graduated from the Department of medicine of Luoda University and studied in Donghai city for four years..." After the anchor roughly explained he Yining''s resume, he said with a smile at the end: "Dr. he is the assistant designated by Li Shao personally. It is said that in an academic research, Dr. he is the only person in the same period who can keep up with the progress of Li Shao''s operation..." The news of a full release is being prepared for breakfast one by one. Lin Lao''s operation has attracted attention in both military and political circles, and he Yining''s name will become a name known to many people from this operation It can be said that Li Yunze has given her the most direct and smooth way in her professional field. No matter whether she stays in Shuya or changes jobs in the future, she has gained the maximum autonomy in her career. "Mom, will the uncle come later?" A little excited. She didn''t know Jane Mo''s "death" before. She just hadn''t seen Jane Jie for a long time since the last barbecue. She''s going to see her now and will go to school together in the future. The little girl''s heart is happy. The most important thing is that when Spencer goes to school, she needs to live on campus. Her mother doesn''t have to work so hard. She has to pick her up and see her off every day. "Well, I''ll be there in a minute!" Why Ning''s words fell, and there came the sound of the doorbell. He Yining opened the door. There was no accident. It was Li Yunze. "Right away." He Yining motioned Li Yunze to come in first, and then went to get his schoolbag and coat one by one. When he arrived at Spencer, Li Yunze took him to sign up one by one, do the entrance test, get the school uniform and find the way to the accommodation. All of them were hands-on. 11. There was a little change in my heart. The little girl can''t say that. That is, it''s not the feeling of Uncle Si. "My mother and I will have a very important operation this weekend. We may come to pick you up one day late. Is that ok?" Li Yunze squatted down and asked. "Mom said!" Nod one by one. Li Yunze smiled, "um..." he pondered slightly, "Xiao Jie is not in a good mood recently. Is there any way to make him happier one by one?" "What''s the matter with Xiao Jie?" One by one asked hurriedly. Li Yunze didn''t say anything about Jian Mo one by one, but gently squeezed her pink face. "Everyone has secrets and reasons for unhappiness that they don''t want to say for the time being. Can they make Xiao Jie happy without asking?" Looking at Li Yunze one by one, the feeling of just came up again. Although uncle Si can do a lot of things, why does she feel more and more looking forward to what this uncle does?! And his tone at the moment, although she didn''t quite understand it, she just felt that she should listen. Nodding one by one, "I will." "OK," Li Yunze smiled. "Remember to share with me that weekend. How do you make Xiaojie happy." "Good!" Listen and share one by one, and suddenly your eyes are full of interest. "Li Shao, I''ll take Xinyao to class first." The teacher looked at the time and said. Li Yunze nodded and got up. He Yining and he watched one by one. After leaving with the teacher, they turned and walked outside the dormitory building "I think if you get along like this, you can tell the truth one by one soon." Why did Ning pick her eyebrow and say, "blood nature," she looked at Li Yunze, "didn''t you find out? You do the same thing, obviously you expect more from you." Blood is a wonderful thing. Just like love, you inadvertently want to get close. Li Yunze stopped, and the morning sun penetrated the mottled branches and leaves and fell on him. He smiled and looked at he Yining. "What about you?" "Well?" Why would you rather pick your eyebrows and smile, "what am I doing?" Li Yunze smiled, "you don''t expect me?" Why Ning''s face turned red in an instant. How could she not? All her expectations thought they would come true after Li Yunze''s side. But people are greedy. She hopes to get more around him. "Li Yunze..." "Huh?" "I......" he Yining looked at Li Yunze, looked at her deep vision, and his eyes crossed cunning. He didn''t say anything next, but ran in the direction of the car. Li Yunze looked at he Yining''s back and slowly found her who used to be herself. It turned out that at the moment, he had long been moved by her. ¡­¡­ "Why would you rather?" When Cheng Guangying saw a doctor coming in, he asked sternly. Dr. Liu just took over and didn''t know what happened at night. At this moment, he was suddenly asked by Cheng Guangying and subconsciously replied: "I haven''t seen Dr. he yet..." "Is your hospital shielding her, so it''s always an excuse?" Cheng Guangying snorted coldly, "don''t think you cover up her medical accident, I''ll let you go!" Doctor Liu frowned and became more and more confused. "Husband..." Xia Xiao''s eyes were red, and his face was even more painful. Cheng Guangying went to the hospital bed, held Xia Xiao''s hand, looked at her tearful eyes, clenched her teeth and said, "Xiaoxiao, don''t worry, I won''t let the one who killed our son feel better..." He turned back with scarlet eyes and looked at Dr. Liu with twisted eyebrows. "I will ruin her and compensate for my son''s life!" Doctor Liu could not help but fight a cold war secretly. Looking at Cheng Guangying''s vision like a cold-blooded beast, he became more and more confused. Dr. he is on the normal shift now, because he is only transferred internally and has not been officially listed. With the explanation of the president, he has not started to be on duty. How did the patient who came in last night get involved with Dr. he?! Just thinking, suddenly there was a cry outside "Doctor he''s news is coming out again," a nurse whispered after screaming. "This is a medical accident!" Chapter 1344 The so-called "good things don''t go out, bad things spread thousands of miles.". In the morning news, he Yining joined Lin Lao''s operation team as a general doctor. It was even revealed that she could cooperate with Li Yunze''s operation progress. Undoubtedly, this is not only a credit to Shuya hospital, but also many people have great curiosity about he Yining, an unknown doctor. But it is precisely because of this that when the news of medical malpractice comes out, it is like the transit of locusts, but in an instant, it spreads on the Internet The speed is so fast that people have no time to deal with it. "Director..." Chu Qin entered Xia Xiao''s separate ward with a dignified face. She first looked at Cheng Guangying and Xia Xiao at the door before walking forward. "Mr. Cheng, you are not only irresponsible to yourself, but also unfair to Dr. he before the investigation is clear..." Chu Qin is calm. "There are many reasons for abortion. Diet, the mother itself, and even some careless behaviors and actions are all possible causes of abortion..." "Don''t tell me that..." Cheng Guangying interrupted Chu Qin with a fierce look. "I''ve already asked other doctors about the drugs you prescribed for the fetal examination here before. Why would you rather prescribe the drugs? For my wife''s situation, it will easily lead to miscarriage!" Although he Yining doesn''t have a hospital to transfer to another department directly, Chu Qin knows his ability. Not to mention the outpatient department, he can also directly start some gynecological operations. But Chu Qin has seen the prescription. The above drugs are no problem for some situations, but Xia Xiao''s body is really easy to miscarry with those drugs Although, the main causes of abortion are not necessarily those drugs. But in any case, it''s a bit unclear now. If the other party knows that he Yining has no official documents to transfer to another department, it will be a blow not only to the hospital, but also to he Yining. Ma Guangming came quickly after hearing about the matter. He hoped to deal with it first. Cheng Guangying is young and aspiring. Now venture capital is booming and gathering rich people. Naturally, he will not be afraid to make things big. Moreover, he looked forward to his first child and heard some gossip that his first child must be a son. Naturally, he looked forward to it. Knowing that his wife was pregnant, Cheng Guangying was so good to Xia Xiao that he suddenly had a miscarriage after a fetal examination. His anger can be imagined. Ma Guangming was so anxious that he asked the hospital public relations to deal with the news on the Internet first. Why would you rather join Lin Lao''s operation team this morning? The news came out only two hours ago. Good things were instantly exaggerated by bad things "Want me to forgive?" Cheng Guangying sneered, "will you forgive your child for being strangled by innocent people?" He clenched his teeth. "From the accident to now, why not even face? Why? It''s not timidity and guilty..." At this time, Chu Qin reacted, patronized to deal with things, and forgot to start today. He Yining participated in Lin''s operation. This week, the president asked her to devote herself to Lin''s operation without coming to the hospital. "Call he Yining. I don''t want to talk about anything now!" Cheng Guangying looked at Xia Xiao, who had been crying all the time, took her hand in pain and said to Ma Guangming, "don''t say any more. Come to find he Yining!" Ma Guangming couldn''t and motioned Chu Qin. ¡­¡­ When he Yining received Chu Qin''s call, he Yining and Li Yunze were coming out of Spencer and preparing to go to the general manager of the army. "Dr. he, come to the hospital first..." He Yining frowned, "what''s the matter?" Chu Qin listened to the noise in the ward and looked at the patients and their families whispering back and forth in the corridor. Her face was dignified. "Come and talk about it!" He Yining felt something bad and answered. "What''s the matter?" Li Yunze looked at why he Ning. "There seems to be something wrong in the hospital," he Yining said. "I''ll go back first. You put me in front. I''ll take the subway. You go to the general manager first." Li Yunze turned to the driveway, "I''ll take you there." There is no foreboding in my heart. Li Yunze felt that he Yining''s mood was wrong and asked again. Because she didn''t know what had happened, she couldn''t say why. "I''ll go in with you." At Shuya, Li Yunze unfastened his seat belt and wanted to get off. "I''ll just go by myself," he Yining said. "You follow me in. If something happens later, how can you deal with it?" She smiled. "There should be nothing wrong. It''s not good to follow you back." Li Yunze''s position in the medical profession should give him face wherever he goes. If there''s anything wrong with him, why should he stop in front of him? Who can say anything? In terms of work, it''s really not very good. Li Yunze pondered and said, "what''s the matter? Call me and I''ll go to the general manager first?" He Yining nodded and got off to the obstetrics and gynecology department. Li Yunze looked at he Yining''s back and walked away for ten meters before starting the car, leaving Shuya hospital and going to the general military administration first. When he Yining returned to the obstetrics and gynecology department, he saw many people gathered in the corridor, and he could hear the shouting and swearing in the ward. "Isn''t that Dr. he Yining?" A patient''s family saw he Yining coming out of the elevator and whispered to the people on the side. Suddenly, the surrounding eyes looked at the past When the nurse saw he Yining coming, she hurried forward, "Dr. he..." "What''s the matter? What happened?" The nurse quickly and briefly explained the cause and effect of the matter. Why Ning''s face changed, "it''s impossible. How can I make such a low-level mistake?!" It''s not easy for the nurse to make a conclusion at the moment, but everyone gets along well at ordinary times, and instinctively believes that he Yining. "Dr. he, go and have a look first. What''s the situation..." the nurse stopped talking. He Yining nodded, because he knew he couldn''t make that mistake and didn''t feel uneasy before coming. He stepped into the ward with a calm step. As soon as Xia Xiao saw he Yining, he immediately sat up and cried and began to accuse: "I thought I met a kind doctor. I didn''t expect you to be so vicious that you caused me to miscarry..." "You are why?" Cheng Guangying also ''rubbed'' to his feet and said angrily, "you made my son run away. I must sue you for not being a doctor!" "Sir, is there any misunderstanding?" He Yining said calmly while looking at Xia Xiao, "I remember you. You came to see the doctor when you were about to leave work three days ago. There was absolutely no problem with my prescription." Because I just hung up Li Yunze''s phone, and I was not busy in the afternoon, the last thing I saw was Xia Xiao. Why would I rather have an impression. "No?" Cheng Guangying took a copy form from the storage table and threw it to he Yining. "I''ve looked for someone to see it. Dare you say there''s no problem with this prescription?" He Yining endured the anger questioned, bent down and picked up the prescription that fell on the ground. When he saw the medicine on it, he suddenly stared, "I didn''t prescribe this medicine!" At the same time Li Yunze, who was driving to the general manager of the army, suddenly received a call from Professor Wang, the major general rank of the second deputy of the general manager of the army in the operation group. "Li Shao, why would you rather have a medical accident..." Professor Wang said solemnly, "Lin''s operation, she must quit!" Chapter 1345 "Medical malpractice?" Li Yunze stared in an instant, "what medical accident?" "Didn''t Li Shao watch the news?" Professor Wang asked. Li Yunze''s eyebrows are a little tight. He knows the news of he Yining this morning. That''s also the announcement of Lin Lao''s operation team. What else news? Professor Wang waited slightly. Seeing that Li Yunze didn''t speak, he said directly: "she is now transferred to obstetrics and gynecology. Originally, it was not appropriate for her to participate in Lin Lao''s operation. Now she has made trouble to prescribe the wrong medicine to the doctor, resulting in the abortion of the doctor..." Li Yunze''s eyes were deep and sharp, "impossible." There is no arbitrariness, the three words are very calm, and there is no trace of doubt. "Li Shao," Professor Wang pushed his glasses and said, "I don''t know why you are particularly interested in this. But now, no matter what''s wrong with her, I''m afraid she''ll enter the operation team..." Professor Wang didn''t go on, but the meaning in the words was already very obvious. Although Li Yunze is the main surgeon this time, the personnel of the operation team also take his convenience as the primary condition. However, the person who underwent the operation this time is not ordinary people. It is a figure that the No. 1 chief above pays special attention to. For both the public and the private, the general military must consider all aspects. The depths of Li Yunze''s eyes had become a cold vortex. He said faintly, "I''m coming to the general manager of the army. I''ll see you later." "OK." Professor Wang didn''t have to ask Li Yunze to make a statement at this time. Li Yunze looked at the road conditions, then turned to the roadside and stopped. He took his mobile phone out to watch the news of the so-called ''medical accident'' ¡­¡­ "I''m responsible for my behavior," he Yining said firmly. "Although I don''t know what has gone wrong, I can''t do such a principled problem." "Impossible?" Cheng Guangying sneered. Because he lost his son, his anger never dissipated. "What''s impossible in this world? The prescription list is from your hospital, and your job number is also on it. Did I PS it?" Ma Guangming and Chu Qin looked at each other and looked dignified one after another. The door of the ward was closed. Cheng Guangying kept yelling. More and more people in the corridor outside began to gather together to talk. He Yining is very calm. She knows what she does. Perhaps, in love, she is a weak person. But in the profession of doctor, every day she faces every doctor, she is worthy of the title of "doctor". "Mr. Cheng, you also said that there is nothing impossible, isn''t it?" Why should I rather look straight at Cheng Guangying without flinching, "I don''t know your wife. I just have a relationship with her. Why do I hurt her?" Besides, she is still a mother! What''s more, she became a doctor because of a ''mother''! "I didn''t say you were harmful to me from beginning to end," Xia Xiaohong looked at he Yining with red eyes, and was particularly angry at her sophistry that she could say such righteous words when she did something wrong. "The problem now is that you prescribed the wrong medicine, so that my husband and I lost our children --" The sharp voice came out with a roar, filled with eardrums and reached the heart. Why Ning Chui Mou looked at the prescription in her hand again, even if the job number and time displayed on it were indeed corresponding, but she didn''t prescribe the medicine. "That day, when I went in to see what case you were looking at, I unconsciously looked at two more eyes. It was not a case of Obstetrics and Gynecology..." Xia Xiao''s tears fell out uncontrollably, "I really doubt whether you are a doctor of Obstetrics and Gynecology!" The accusation cheered the Shuya personnel present. Although he Yining has been transferred to another department, if she really wants to be investigated, she can not be regarded as a doctor of Obstetrics and gynecology. "I still insist that I didn''t prescribe this medicine. What I prescribed for you that day was..." he Yining said several medicine names and looked at Chu Qin. "Director Chu, do you think there is something wrong with the medicine I prescribed?" "No." Chu Qin finished and subconsciously looked at the prescription in he Yining''s hand. There is no problem with the medicine he Yining said, but the problem is The most important thing is that the system has also adjusted the records. It is indeed the drugs on the current prescription. "Husband..." Xia Xiao sobbed. "Do you know how happy I am to have your child, but our son is gone now..." Xia Xiao''s collapse and crying disturbed everyone''s heart. Silence accompanied by crying made the whole ward particularly depressed. He Yining''s eyes fell on the prescription again and gradually tightened his eyebrows. She''s sure she didn''t drive wrong, but now she''s wrong. Most importantly, it can be seen that Xia Xiao and her husband want the child very much, so she ruled out the idea of "evading responsibility" in her heart. But it''s not her own fault. It''s related to an unformed little life. How can she admit it?! Lifting his eyes, he Yining firmly clenched his teeth again and said, "I don''t know where the link went wrong, but this'' mistake ''I can''t admit!" He Yining''s attitude completely angered Cheng Guangying. He immediately made cruel words, which would ruin he Yining''s reputation and leave the profession of doctor forever Ma Guangming''s pain on his face originally thought that Shuya could attract more patients when Lin''s old operation team came out today, but he didn''t expect such a medical malpractice dispute. Chu Qin couldn''t understand why he Ning looked at it. She believed he Yining''s ability, but the evidence was in front of her, and she had to face Moreover, one thing that cannot be ignored is that no one will make mistakes, but the probability and degree of mistakes are different. When the tiger dozes, the doctor naturally sees the wrong diagnosis and prescribes the wrong medicine The atmosphere in the ward condensed as if a time bomb had been put, which would explode at any time. Outside the ward, patients and their families talked one after another. Some people were taken care of by he Yining. They began to be afraid of what was wrong with themselves. They gathered at the nurse station to check and change doctors. On Monday morning, the news of the collision made he Yining "grow" in public opinion Is it tough grass or easily broken dead branches? Fate is testing her willpower! He Yining gradually clenched her hand with the prescription. Looking at Xia Xiao''s collapse, her heart gradually twisted and almost wanted to suffocate. The sudden ringing of the mobile phone broke the treacherous "Silence" atmosphere. Why did Ning feel as if she hadn''t heard it until the nurse who was close to her gave a timid reminder. He Yining took it out and called Li Yunze. At this moment, he Yining looked at the name of the caller, and his nose was sour in an instant. The mixed emotions surged into his heart. She was afraid to answer his phone at the moment. She was afraid. He saw the news and questioned her Why is Ning too clear about Li Yunze''s respect for the profession of "doctor"? Will he think that she has defiled the "doctor" and that she is really unfit to be a doctor? In an instant, he Yining was afraid, but he picked up the phone and put it in his ea Chapter 1346 Cheng Guangying''s face became iron blue. Under such circumstances, why Ning''s every action of uncompromising and admitting his mistake has become a way to annoy him He Yining glanced at Xia Xiao and said, "hmm?" Feeling the tension of he Yining''s voice, Li Yunze looked slightly Lin and said directly, "I''ve seen the news." Why rather bite his teeth and don''t speak. However, her hand holding the mobile phone was obviously shaking, which seemed to be nervous and afraid. "Just tell me," Li Yunze said quietly, "is it your fault?" Why Ning''s eyes hurt, "what if I say no?!" "Well," Li Yunze answered, "then deal with it well. I''ll go to the general manager first and tell me what''s going on there." "Li..." he Yining just spit out half a scale in her voice. When the people didn''t know what she wanted to say, she swallowed it back. Li Yunze seemed to feel what he Yining wanted to say. His voice was calm, but he slowly opened his mouth with support: "I misunderstood you in the past. You tell me with your achievements and ability that you are suitable to be a doctor." He Yining''s nose was so sour that he immediately thought of how Li Yunze, the teaching assistant, scolded her in class. "Yining, tell me now, are you suitable?" Li Yunze asked. "Yes!" Why would you rather answer with red eyes. Li Yunze smiled, "then why don''t I believe you?" Paused, "I saw your efforts, and I paid attention to your confidence in transferring. I don''t have any personal feelings. I believe in you professionally and professionally." In this case, why can''t you control your emotions. Aside from personal feelings, Li Yunze''s affirmation and trust in medicine is more important than many. "Finally, say a personal word..." Li Yunze looked ahead and his vision was gradually far-reaching. "Yining," his voice was low but with long support, "don''t be afraid... There is me." Li Yunze''s hand can''t reach Shuya for no reason, but he gave him a faith. Solve it. If it can''t be solved, there''s him! He gave her space to fly and a place to rest. He is a doctor. He knows the blow of a medical accident to doctors Whether true or false, it''s a big blow. "Yes!" Why should Ning slightly look up and force back the emotions he wanted to break through. No matter where there is a problem, she won''t admit it inexplicably. She should at least give herself an understanding! After hanging up the phone, he Yining looked more firmly at Cheng Guangying and the crying hysterical Xia Xiao and said calmly, "I won''t accept your accusations until things are really clear." "He Yining, let''s wait and see..." Cheng Guangying said coldly, "I''ll make you pay for your behavior." He Yining seems to have pressed a huge stone in his heart and can''t breathe If it wasn''t for Li Yunze''s trust and support and the sentence "don''t be afraid, there is me", why would she rather think she wouldn''t know how to face it at the moment. ¡­¡­ Qu Weiwei sat in the studio office, her fingers gently sliding the mouse, watching the news on the Internet like crazy. Really... What a coincidence! Unexpectedly, Li Yunze would arrange he Yining in Lin Lao''s operation No matter what the starting point is, he Yining is bound to rise in value. But now?! ha-ha! I''m afraid I have to quit the group because of a medical accident, or even a medical failure?! Qu Weiwei''s mouth overflowed with a shallow smile, which was cold and dazzling. Xia Xiao''s pregnancy was originally a happy thing. In addition, someone told Cheng Guangying that his first child would be a boy. Xia Xiao naturally couldn''t wait to know what she was pregnant with? Who knows it''s a girl after the blood test. If she runs away for no reason, it will only make Cheng Guangying angry. She can''t keep his son. If it''s a daughter, but the result is the same Xia Xiao is a smart man. Just a little can tell. Xia Xiao wouldn''t think of the purpose of her introduction After all, Shuya is the closest hospital in Los Angeles to Runze park. It''s understandable that Xia Xiao went there for fetal examination. Most importantly, Cheng Guangying determined that Xia Xiao''s fetus was a boy, not Xia Xiao''s own reason. It can be imagined how he would deal with the initiator of the incident Qu Weiwei looked at the news and gradually smiled. She clicked the mouse and closed the web page. She got up and went to the tea room to make a cup of coffee. Looking at the leaves swaying in the wind outside, her blood swayed If there is something, even if you try again, what you lose... Will eventually be lost! A trainee assistant newly recruited by the studio entered the tea room with a cup. Suddenly, she just felt as if a dark wind was coming, and she couldn''t help fighting a cold war. When seeing Qu Weiwei, the internship assistant grinned secretly and said to herself: it''s sister Wei. No wonder she just felt something wrong with the air. ¡­¡­ When Li Yunze arrived at the general military headquarters, he went directly to Professor Wang''s office. When the talent went in, he saw several people around him, all of whom were from the operation team. Originally, after the announcement of the operation team this morning, there was a meeting to be held in the afternoon. The next step was to start all the schemes for simulated surgery to find the unexpected conditions that may occur during the operation. After all, Lin is old. If there is any emergency, he can''t get off the operating table at any time. "Isn''t the meeting in the afternoon?" Li Yunze seemed to know nothing. With an eerie sound, he opened the chair opposite Professor Wang and sat down. "Old Lin''s surgical simulation won''t start until tomorrow. You don''t have to be too nervous." Everyone looked at each other. Naturally, everyone here knew that Li Yunze knew what he Yining was about. Even, they should know why they gathered here? Professor Wang''s face was a little heavy. Looking at a relaxed Li Yunze, he said in a deep voice: "why do you gather here? I think Li Shao should know..." paused, "why do you have to quit the operation team?" Li Yunze didn''t speak, but there was a faint smile around his mouth. That smile didn''t spread there. The atmosphere was a little stiff. At present, people are all experts. On weekdays, they are also professors who occasionally take courses in Military Medical University. Everyone is motivated. Li Yunze''s age is younger. Unfortunately, he is an "elder" in academic circles, and no one here disagrees. But in the end, they all have military integrity. If they make mistakes, they will make mistakes. There is nothing to discuss. Besides, the people involved in this operation can''t be careless. "Must?" Li Yunze smiled lightly, and the smile at the corners of his mouth spread a little, "what is necessity?" Chapter 1347 Li Yunze didn''t wait for Professor Wang to answer, but said in a gloomy voice, "if I have to let her stay?" Professor Wang and others frowned one after another. Although it has been thought that Li Yunze probably won''t care why he Ning the medical accident, he didn''t expect that his expression was completely non-negotiable. "The operation is my main knife, and the object of the operation is public and private..." Li Yunze slowly opened his mouth, with a low voice, but the pressure that everyone here can''t ignore, "I don''t want to have an accident." "But..." "I don''t care whether he Yining is a qualified doctor or not, but I know very well that the assistant and deputy who want to keep up with the progress of my operation against time is difficult to find anyone except her!" Li Yunze''s words don''t have any personal feelings in it. Many people cooperated with his operation, but it was only in the sense of work. He Yining is different. That''s the most direct thing under the familiar instinct and heart. Besides, he didn''t believe that Yining would make such a low-level mistake The atmosphere became more and more rigid. Li Yunze could not care what he Yining''s situation was and had to let her into the operation team, but Professor Wang and others could not. They are doctors, but they are also soldiers. No one can make an exception when making a principled mistake. "Jingling..." Just when the two sides were deadlocked, Professor Wang suddenly remembered the landline phone on his desk, which surprised everyone except Li Yunze. Li Yunze faintly converged his eyes, as if the confrontation and refusal had nothing to do with him. Everything was an illusion. Professor Wang answered the phone in a frozen mood, "hello..." "It''s me." The person on the other end of the phone spit out two words, and his voice is calm and steady. Head, sit straight, Professor "What about the news?" No. 1 chief asked, "why did the personnel in the operation team have a medical accident?" Professor Wang subconsciously looked at Li Yunze, and then told the general situation to head No. 1. "Such a person is in Lin Lao''s operation team..." the No. 1 chief twisted his eyebrows and paused silently before slowly saying, "no!" "That''s what I mean." Professor Wang looked at Li Yunze again, "but Li Shao insisted." Li Yunze didn''t have any emotion because the person on the other end of the phone was the No. 1 head. He sat quietly. Then take the scalpel. I don''t know how many people''s hands have been saved. Gently, they knock on the desk. The sound was not loud, but it happened that every time it seemed to knock on everyone''s heart, it made the heart contract. No. 1 chief listened to Professor Wang''s words and tightened his eyebrows. "Give the phone to the boy." "Yes!" Professor Wang answered the voice skillfully and handed the microphone to Li Yunze. Li Yunze took over, remained seated and said, "chairman!" "Lin is always a hero of the country..." the No. 1 chief said something painstakingly before he said the decisive words, "why not use it!" In front of the No. 1 chief, Li Yunze naturally could not make such a decision as facing Professor Wang. Because the patient is Lin Lao, he can''t directly kick his son and say that the operation is not done But Li Yunze secretly scolded: shit, labor and capital are the main knife. Labor and capital want to save Lin Lao. Can I treat the operation as a play?! Li Yunze didn''t speak, didn''t answer, and didn''t stubbornly insist on what to do. "Think about it!" Chief one didn''t push too hard. Li Yunze answered and hung up without looking at Professor Wang and others. Li Yunze basically "um" from beginning to end, so we don''t know whether this "um" is agreed, why Yining quit the operation team or what Li Yunze lowered his eyes and meditated. He suddenly got up and left Professor Wang''s office without saying anything, leaving everyone looking at each other with a question mark on his face. After Li Yunze went out, he Yining was dialed. He Yining has just "escaped" in Cheng Guangying''s sharp and angry attitude, and plans to check her duty record in the clinic that day. "Huh?" He Yining answered the phone and said softly. Li Yunze didn''t ask about "medical malpractice". Since he trusted her, he naturally wouldn''t put pressure on her. "Old Lin''s operation, Yining, tell me, can you cooperate with me now?" Li Yunze asked directly. He Yining knows what Li Yunze thinks. Old Lin''s operation is to race against time. Now that she has this thing, she will have a big problem if she has a psychological burden. "Can I still be in the operation team?" Why should Ning hang his eyes and ask, there was some weakness in his voice. "Just tell me," Li Yunze asked again without answering, "can you cooperate with me?" He Yining took a deep breath, with firmness in his eyes, "I can!" "Well," Li Yunze answered, "that''s all right. You should deal with your business, the meeting, and tell you when you pick you up." "OK..." why did you rather smile at the corners of your mouth. Li Yunze hung up the phone and the man was already standing in front of the door of the old Lin''s ward. His eyes narrowed slightly, then pushed open the door of the ward and went in Lin Lao''s mental head is better than that of the other days. "Yunze is coming..." although old Lin is ill, his natural military demeanor has not been covered up at all. "Grandpa Lin," Li Yunze pulled over his chair and sat down, "something happened to the operation team." Lin Lao has doubts in his eyes. Li Yunze didn''t hide it and said it roughly Lin Lao is the person who wades through the hail of bullets. I''m afraid his shrewd hair is hollow. After listening to Li Yunze''s words, he slowly opened his mouth: "it seems that he is going to kick out of the operation team!" Yes, yes. Li Yunze never spoke or even responded with any action. Lin Lao smiled, "Yunze, you and Ning girl have known each other for more than ten years." Lin didn''t mention the operation. Suddenly, he said thoughtfully, "Alas, people are old, and their organs are useless... Lying here, you love memories." Li Yunze''s face was a little dignified. "In the past, girl Ning ran after you and laughed at the smelly boy in the South..." old Lin smiled again. "I''m happy to see that girl Ning''s wish has been achieved." When the words fell, old Lin looked at Li Yunze. "You boy, it doesn''t matter what you don''t care about when you don''t care about it, but the people and things you care about can be wholehearted..." old Lin said. "This is also the reason why you can give Jiyuan''s Li family to the next." Li Yunze listened quietly and listened to Lin Laodong pulling and pulling for a better time. I don''t know how long it took before I heard old Lin ask, "Yunze, tell me honestly... Do you want girl Ning to stay in the operation team, public... Or private?" Chapter 1348 Li Yunze''s vision of Shanglin old man was clearly an old man, and his eyes were pasted with a layer of turbid breath by the years. Can be such a pair of eyes, not too much emotional indifference and transcendence, born with a tenacity that people can''t ignore. The time is full of bullets and rain "I believe her," Li Yunze said quietly, without a flicker of emotion in his eyes, "in public... In private!" He once said that why to be a doctor is harmful to others and yourself. But such words can''t deny all kinds of contact in this year''s meeting again after these years. From the academic conference in Los Angeles to the national medical seminar, whether it is practical operation or he Yining''s theoretical notes, he, as a doctor, is very appreciative and recognized. In private, he didn''t believe why he would rather make such a small mistake, let alone that she couldn''t control such a simple pharmacology. "I hope Yining will participate in your operation, which is also for public and private..." Li Yunze didn''t hide anything, and he couldn''t hide it under Lin Lao''s seemingly indifferent but actually sharp vision. "I hope she can improve her reputation and get more room for development after this time. Because grandma Gu left, Yining has two regrets. You were very good to Yining and grew up with Yining in the south. That''s three..." Lin Lao''s smile deepened. "These are private." "Yu Gong..." Li Yunze smiled. "She is the person who can make the fastest response to my operation progress at present." With this alone, he Yining has to participate in this operation. Old Lin smiled, ''ha ha''. "Yunze, Yunze," said old Lin with a long sigh, "you''re a slippery boy." Li Yunze smiled, did not refute, acquiesced. Yes, he didn''t directly answer the words of head No. 1 and didn''t bother to argue with Professor Wang''s old stubbornness Because, just let Lin decide for himself. Mr. Lin called the No. 1 chief and expressed his wish that he Yining would join the operation team. Soon, Professor Wang and others came and earnestly hoped that old Lin would think twice. "There''s nothing to think about..." old Lin said slowly. "I grew up watching girl Ning. If she doesn''t have this ability, she will take over my job?" When young, the old fellow of iron and blood was very open-minded. Besides, at his age, he has long regarded life and death very lightly. "Besides, life and death... I''m not worried. What are you worried about?" Old Lin said, "well, that''s it!" Professor Wang twisted his eyebrows and looked at Li Yunze with a smile like nothing in his mouth. His whole face was bitter together. ¡­¡­ The news outside is raging in the eyes of people who care about events and gossip. In this world, too many people can''t see others climbing the clouds, hoping for good luck that they can''t get, and others can''t get it. As soon as the news of "medical malpractice" came out, many people talked about why Ning should not only retire from the operation team, but also have a rough career as a doctor in the future. Cheng Guangying is a man with skill and ability. Otherwise, he would not have made venture capital so popular in just a few years. To trip up he Yining, who has no "any backing", is as simple as crushing an ant in his eyes. "On the surface, Cheng Guangying is the boss of Cheng Guang venture capital," Su Rumin said with some worry. "But the venture capital is so big that few hands are clean." In this way, it is very circuitous. Jin shaosi couldn''t see to the end with his eyes. He just opened his mouth indifferently: "I don''t care what his backer is. I''ll contact the next person first. I don''t want the situation to get out of hand." Medical malpractice is related to people''s livelihood. If you don''t have an affair, you can use special means to suppress it. Such a thing, the more pressure, the more sharp the people''s reaction to the event, which will only harm Yining Jin shaosi frowned anxiously and suddenly rejoiced that she had been sent to Spencer one by one today. Otherwise, if the little girl heard anything, she didn''t know what to do?! After taking the mobile phone, Jin shaosi dialed he Yining''s phone No one answered. He then sent a text message: I just finished the meeting and heard about it. Yining, how''s it going? I''m very worried! He Yining is staring at the computer screen, surrounded by technicians who maintain the system in the hospital. "There are other aspects of the path..." the technician looked at he Yining, who was pale, sighed and said, "there is no problem." The implication is that this prescription is not separated from ten. That''s why I''d rather open it myself. "How could..." Why Ning looked at the path time found on the computer, his eyelashes trembled slightly, and he didn''t hear the phone ring at all. She was sure that the medicine she prescribed that day was not this, but how to explain this situation now? Chu Qin''s face was tangled, and all kinds of expressions crossed in an instant. "Yining..." Chu Qin called. Why Ning glanced at Chu Qin with red eyes, "I didn''t..." I haven''t prescribed these drugs! Why Ning''s voice became pale and weak in the middle of the speech. At this moment, even she was wondering whether she had a brain attack because of something that day. She thought that she was prescribing those drugs, but the last list was these. He Yining''s eyes were flustered. Thinking of Xia Xiao''s sad appearance of losing her child and Cheng Guangying''s anger, she felt as if she had been evacuated, and the whole person became powerless. Just after calling Li Yunze that day, Xia Xiao came Is it true that she has lost her head in love?! He Yining looked at the string of data to find the path on the computer screen again and stared at it as if he were going to stare at a hole in the computer Just then, the door of the technical room was suddenly opened. Subconsciously, they saw the staff of the administrative department of the hospital come in with a worried face "Cheng Guangying is fast and has received a lawyer''s letter." The administrative staff looked at he Yining. "This lawyer is famous for playing such a medical lawsuit in Los Angeles. He seems to be a client of Cheng Guang venture capital." What''s the implication? I''m afraid it''s bad luck. The most important thing is that even if he Yining, a lawyer of such a big guy of the other party, wants to win the lawsuit, the lawyer''s fee alone is not a small amount. In the end, he Yining may lose both fame and wealth. ¡­¡­ After Li Yunze left the old Lin''s ward, he ignored the resentful sight of Professor Wang and others, and directly dialed he Yining No one answered the phone. Li Yunze was uneasy and called ma Guangming directly. "Li Shao, Dr. he''s about joining the old Lin operation team..." Ma Guangming is most worried about this at the moment. Li Yunze slightly sank his face and asked in a deep voice, "I asked, how is the matter of why Ning?" Ma Guangming was forcibly frightened by the words across the wireless wave and swallowed, "doctor he did prescribe the wrong medicine, and the other party will sue..." Chapter 1349 "What are you talking about?" Li Yunze''s words were a little colder and warned, "Dean Ma, you should be very clear that you can''t talk about such things..." Ma Guangming swallowed hard again, then hardened his head and said, "the system path and traces have been checked. The medicine that led to Xia Xiao''s abortion was indeed prescribed by doctor he..." "Impossible!" Li Yunze spoke directly. Ma Guangming grinned secretly, and his heart was bitter. If you say it''s impossible, it''s impossible. He also hopes it''s impossible! Now why? Shuya has suddenly become a "red" hospital, which is the public opinion in the society, and then the patient who wants to be transferred to the hospital is in a mess. "But the problem now is that the other party wants to sue!" Ma Guangming grinned hard and said, "I also invited lawyer Cao who had a serious medical lawsuit..." "Doodle doodle..." What responded to Ma Guangming was not Li Yunze''s words, but a series of annoying hang ups. After Li Yunze hung up Ma Guangming''s phone, he directly called out a person''s number and dialed out with a dignified face ¡­¡­ "Dr. he," lawyer Cao handed the lawyer''s letter to he Yining, "I''m the entrusted lawyer of Mr. Cheng and Mrs. Cheng..." He Yining listened to lawyer Cao''s "bar, bar, bar" and said a lot of professional terms before listening to him seriously: "my client is very angry about this. If you are willing to do it privately, then publish an apology in the newspaper. If you are not willing, we can only go through legal procedures." He Yining said coldly, "isn''t the purpose of public and private the same?" It''s all because she''s disgraced and can''t be a doctor anymore. Even a private chat means that she admits she prescribed the wrong medicine. "Of course," said lawyer Cao with a proud face. "You may not have to revoke your doctor''s license. When the limelight passes, you will naturally be able to be your doctor. If you go to court... I''m afraid you won''t be so lucky." "Is that right? I also want to thank you for your kindness?" He Yining sneered sarcastically, gritted his teeth and said, "I won''t admit what I haven''t done." "Don''t shed tears if you don''t see the coffin..." lawyer Cao sneered, "it seems that we have to see each other in court." The people in the administrative department of the hospital looked melancholy. Just before he Yining came, they had negotiated with lawyer Cao, but the other party didn''t enter the oil and salt completely and didn''t give any room for discussion at all. "Doctor he..." the of the administration department pulled him Yining, "you see, why don''t you take a soft first..." he winked at him Yining and motioned her to wait a while before trying to solve it. "I still say that. I didn''t prescribe that prescription." On the way from the technology department, he Yining kept thinking about what happened that afternoon. Even if the medicine displayed on the system path is wrong, even for a moment, she is wondering if she is wrong But it was just a moment. She was not wrong, although she didn''t know what was wrong. "I hope Dr. he can persist in this way when he goes to court." Lawyer Cao sneered, glanced at the administrative staff, turned and wanted to leave. Before he moved, there was a steady sound of footsteps at the door. Then two people came in one after another. When lawyer Cao saw the leader, there was a touch of surprise in his eyes, and then there was no coldness and arrogance on his face when he Yining was just treated, and there was a layer of flattery. "Lawyer Mo, why are you here?" Lawyer Cao came forward and stretched out his hand. Mo Shaochen smiled faintly. Without much emotion, he politely shook hands with lawyer Cao. "I heard something happened to his friend," he looked at he Yining and said with a smile, "come and have a look." "Friends?" Lawyer Cao looked at he Yining reflexively, and then his pupils expanded. It was obvious that the two people knew each other, "lawyer Mo is here..." "I''m not good at medical disputes," Mo Shaochen said with a faint smile when he saw that lawyer Cao had just breathed a sigh of relief. "It''s just that my friend came back from abroad to play for a few days. By the way, do me a favor." Lawyer Cao subconsciously looked at the man who had not spoken. The man''s height was more than 190 and his face was deep, as if he were a hybrid "This is Dai Wen," Mo Shaochen said faintly from beginning to end. "From this moment on, he will become Dr. he''s attorney." "Hello! Devon nodded at lawyer Cao with an elegant smile. Lawyer Cao immediately fainted. Just now, he was afraid that Mo Shaochen would pick up he Yining''s lawyer. Although he mainly fought criminal arguments, people in the industry knew that Mo Shaochen liked the criminal part, not that he was not good at other lawsuits. Lawyer Cao was secretly relieved when he said it wasn''t him, but when he heard it was Dai Wen "You are the Devin who finally reversed the outcome of the major medical accident in the United States last year with an enemy of four lawyers?" Lawyer Cao swallowed it secretly and asked with certainty. "Can''t you think I''m so famous in China?" Devon raised his eyebrows. Lawyer Cao''s anger collapsed in an instant, and the expression on his face was gradually strained. This person is called a "smiling tiger". He fought a decisive battle thousands of miles in court. Whether the other party has money or not, he depends on his mood... He has not lost so far, especially in medical accidents. He is simply another Dai Wen of Mo Shaochen! Lawyer Cao felt his nerves were cramping I thought he Yining was a person without backstage, but I didn''t expect Lawyer Cao didn''t know how he went. He frowned and wondered whether to persuade Cheng Guangying to solve it privately. After all, if you meet Dai Wen, even he Yining''s fault will eventually become no fault. ¡­¡­ "Long time no see." Mo Shaochen smiled and looked at he Yining. "Haven''t seen you for a long time..." why did Ning zhe lower the corner of his mouth, "Yunze is looking for you?" "Yes." Mo Shaochen didn''t hide, "I have a lawsuit on hand recently. Dai Wen just came to me and asked me to do me a favor." He Yining''s nose was a little sour. She didn''t know how Li Yunze knew to go through the legal procedure. She was just warm in her heart at the moment. He trusted her and told her, ''don''t be afraid, there is him''! Yes, with him, what is she afraid of? Not done, just not done After Mo Shaochen dismissed the administrative staff, he Yining and Dai Wentong learned about the causes and consequences. "Don''t worry about this. You should cooperate with Yunze to do the operation of Lin Lao first." Mo Shaochen said, "the court session is estimated to be scheduled for next week." He Yining nodded, "Shaochen, thank you." "You''re welcome with me?" Mo Shaochen smiled, "I have something to do with Dai Wen. Let''s go first..." After seeing Mo Shaochen off, he Yining was not in the mood to deal with the curiosity of the staff of the administration department, nor did he go back to obstetrics and Gynecology, dragging his weak body to the stairwell. Take out your mobile phone, why would you rather see a missed call. Jin shaosi, Li Yunze, Yan Miao and Fang Zihan He Yining sent a short message back to yanmiao, Fang Zihan and Jin shaosi, saying that he would meet them later. Then, looking at Li Yunze''s number, he bit his lower lip and dialed out As soon as the phone was connected, he Yining didn''t speak, so he heard Li Yunze say, "come out, I''m in the parking lot of your hospital." Chapter 1350 He Yining didn''t react for a moment. After several seconds, he asked, "Why are you... In Shuya?" "Just arrived." Li Yunze smiled, "come out." "Oh..." why should Ning answer the voice, hang up the phone and go to the hospital parking lot. From a distance, he Yining saw Li Yunze''s car and accelerated her pace without knowing it. When she got on the bus, she sat down and closed the door. A food box was handed to her He Yining looked at Li Yunze in a daze and listened to him say: "busy lunch has missed the time. I''ll be busy later... Thinking of going to the winery restart in the evening, I''m afraid I can''t eat for a while. I''d better pad my stomach first." He Yining took it, "aren''t you... Going to have a meeting?" "You have to eat at the meeting." Li Yunze indicated why he would rather eat, and his tone was filled with ambiguous jokes. "It''s boring to eat alone. Don''t you mind eating in the car with me?" He Yining''s eyes turned red at once. "It''s not because you know I certainly didn''t eat and I''m not in the mood to eat, so you have to come to Shuya from the general manager of the army to eat with me..." "Tut Tut, this brain turns very fast!" Li Yunze rubbed his head like petting a dog, and his voice was always relaxed. "But I really didn''t eat. I thought Shaochen had solved it and just took you to a meeting together. I don''t have to look back. I have to tell you again." The eyes were filled with mist for a moment. She lowered her eyes, bit her lower lip, and said with a choking voice: "Li Yunze, I don''t know what''s wrong, but I really didn''t prescribe the wrong medicine... But in the system, I just prescribe the wrong medicine." Li Yunze touched his hand and wiped the tears from the corners of he Yining''s eyes, "I believe you." "But..." he Yining raised his eyes and looked up at Li Yunze''s soft vision. "As long as you are firm that you haven''t done anything wrong, no matter what mistakes appear anywhere, you can always find the problem..." Li Yunze''s voice is light and slow under stability. "Yining, if you don''t have confidence in yourself, how can you make others believe it?" Why rather bite his lips, his sight is twisted with Li Yunze''s, and gradually, he is calmed down by the calm and guidance in his eyes. "Eat first and then go to the meeting together, huh?" He Yining nodded. Hot rice noodles and coke with ice are what I like to eat on weekdays. When he is with Li Yunze, he usually doesn''t let him drink iced coke. Today, he took the initiative to buy it for her, just to let her understand that she has him around now. He can support her when she wants to solve problems, and help her when she is tired and unable to support. The news outside continues to ferment. The melon eaters are waiting for the news that the operation team will remove he Yining, although it has nothing to do with their half a cent After the news of he Yining''s medical accident, in the afternoon, the once Hejia winery restarted the press conference, which attracted the attention of many people. Some people even wonder why they would rather not have anything to do with who they used to be? After all, all surnamed he, there was news on the same day. In the afternoon surgery meeting, he Yining obviously found that everyone was hostile to her except Li Yunze. He Yining looked at Li Yunze. He just gave her a firm sight, and she felt at ease. After the meeting, Li Yunze and he Yining rushed to the Los Angeles hotel. This evening''s reception, in addition to the invitation letter, some people in Los Angeles who like red wine and some who have not been invited but have some small interests also attended the reception. "Yining..." Li Yunze looked at he Yining after the car was parked in the parking space of the underground garage. "Wait, I''ll pretend I don''t know you very well." He Yining looked at Li Yunze blankly. Li Yunze smiled at he Yining, took her into his arms and gently opened his mouth: "I believe you, but many people will point out to you... This is not what I want to see." Why do you rather hold your lips and remain silent. "You can stay in the operation team, I''m honest, don''t rule out selfishness..." Li Yunze''s voice showed a touch of helplessness, "but most of them are still because you are suitable." Why is Ning Xinjian trembling, "I understand that you don''t want others to think that I''m because of you, not because of my major." "Yes!" Li Yunze let go of he Yining and looked at her quietly. "Not only that, I also hope you can grow up in adversity..." he paused. "Yining, you know very well what a doctor needs to bear when he has to stand in front of the operating table in the face of various problems." He Yining nodded, "I understand..." Li Yunze smiled and nodded, indicating why he would rather get off first. "I told major Jin in advance that he was waiting for you at the door of the reception." Why Yining''s nose is sour again, and the tears are full of eyes when they are out of control. Li Yunze was still smiling, smiling softly and calmly, "go, I''ll go up later." He Yining clenched her teeth to prevent tears from flowing out. She just made a flustered ''um'' sound and hurriedly turned and got out of the car. Yunze, thank you for what you have done for me. No matter what happens, I won''t be afraid. I can face it, because... With you. Li Yunze sat in the car and looked at the back of he Yining who was flustered to avoid sadness. His eyes gradually became very deep, very deep "Yining, next, it may make you sad..." Li Yunze slowly opened his mouth, and his voice was full of repressed complex emotions. "Since I doubt some things, I want to confirm... After all, instead of solving them every time they happen, I''d better find out the problems before they happen..." From small to large, because of me, you are sad again and again, and you can persist So this time, will you continue to insist?! Li Yunze slowly leaned against the car seat, and his vision was that he Yining''s figure retracted after entering the elevator and fell in front. It is said that there is no position in love, only love or not. It turns out that when you love, no matter what your status, you will be at a loss. You don''t know what to do to make each other happy every day ¡­¡­ Qu Weiwei just arrived at the Los Angeles hotel. Before she got off the bus, her mobile phone rang. She took it out of her handbag. Seeing that it was Xia Xiao, she subconsciously looked around and picked it up "Vivian, things seem to be getting out of hand." Xia Xiao kept looking at the door of the ward for fear that someone would come in suddenly. "My husband asked a lawyer to sue Dr. he. There was nothing at all, but now I hear that the lawyer over there is very powerful." "No matter who loses or wins the lawsuit, you just need to be sad about losing your child..." Qu Weiwei smiled. "You think, your purpose has nothing to do with Dr. he. You just need accidental abortion. Just don''t put the responsibility of abortion on you." Xia Xiao suddenly reacted. "So, let your husband toss about the next thing..." Qu Weiwei said. "If you''re upset and the matter is over, you can help Dr. he secretly." "That''s right." Xia Xiao was slightly relieved. "Thank you, Vivian." "I..." "Dong Dong!" Qu Weiwei just wanted to speak when she heard someone suddenly knock on the car glass. As she frowned slightly, the figure leaned slightly and looked at the car glass When Qu Weiwei saw her face, her face suddenly changed. She spoke to Xia Xiao in a hurry and hung up the phone. Chapter 1351 Qu Weiwei subconsciously looked around and saw no one nearby paying attention. She hurriedly opened the window and said, "Why are you here?" Tan Zhonglang was stunned. "I''m the winemaker of the winery. Shouldn''t I be here?" Qu Weiwei closed her eyes and bared her teeth. How did she forget When she opened her eyes, Qu Weiwei looked at Tan Zhonglang and said, "I''m going to order some wine today. In private..." Tan Zhonglang understood Qu Weiwei''s meaning and felt a little lost. Qu Weiwei saw that Tan Zhonglang didn''t move. Her face was obviously a little bad, but she didn''t say anything. "I went first..." Tan Zhonglang sighed and turned into the hotel. Qu Weiwei waited a little longer before she got out of the car, slightly lifted her long wavy hair and walked gracefully to the hotel. The launching ceremony of the ''WY'' wine reception was held at 9 p.m., just after 7 p.m., and many people had come to the reception. Business people, stars and many wine lovers, plus the media, the whole reception hall on the first floor is crowded and full of wine. "Here comes Li Shao." Someone looked at the door of the reception and whispered. The person next to him took a look and then subconsciously looked at he Yining who was with Jin shaosi "Have you read today''s news?" Someone said, "I heard that he Yining joined the operation team Li Yunze gave to Lin Lao, and there was another medical accident." "I can''t figure out why a person in obstetrics and Gynecology would participate in heart surgery?" "What obstetrics and Gynecology..." another person said, "my brother''s sister is in Shuya. I heard that he Yining began to work in general surgery. Recently, he transferred to obstetrics and gynecology. The most important thing is that he just transferred internally. There is no such thing..." "No wonder there was a medical accident. Is Shuya too bold?" "Who knows?" "If this thing explodes, no matter right or wrong, I guess why Ning will be over... Shuya will not be better." "That''s not necessarily." Someone looked at shaosi Jin who was talking to he Yining. "Who is shaosi Jin? Even if she is not a doctor, isn''t Mrs. Jin better?" "Also... It''s different from people''s lives. Looking at other people''s lives, it''s the same as opening and hanging up." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Where there are people, there are gossip. Where there are gossip, one person will die. This has become a law and the root of human nature. "You go and be busy. I''ll be fine." He Yining looked at Jin shaosi and said. Jin shaosi looked at the faint red silk in he Yining''s eyes. In the depths of his eyes, some darkness flashed by. "Yanmiao is coming. You''re with her. Don''t pay attention to what others say, huh?" He Yining nodded, looked back at yanmiao who came over, and motioned Jin shaosi to be busy. Jin shaosi and yanmiao nodded, turned around and left with Su ruomin, "how long does it take to acquire Chengguang venture capital?" "Some difficulty." Su ruomin said, "I''m afraid the supporting force behind it won''t look at being acquired like this." Jin shaoston stepped down and looked at Su ruomin. Without half an expression on his face, he said, "the purpose is not to buy!" Su ruomin was stunned and reacted, "OK, I see. I''ll ask Cheng Guangying to find boss in these two days." Mr. Jin didn''t say anything more and turned to deal with some things. ¡­¡­ Yan Miao listened to why Ning said what happened today. She frowned and spit on Xia Xiao. "It''s so special. I really feel like an invisible net..." He Yining sighed and didn''t speak. "What did Li Yunze say?" Yan Miao said and looked around. There were too many people and didn''t find where Li Yunze was. "Why didn''t he come with you?" "He believed me and asked Mo Shaochen to bring a lawyer to help me..." he Yining said, "because of Lin''s operation and this matter now, I want to avoid suspicion with him." "Avoid suspicion? Avoid what suspicion?" "He doesn''t want others to think that I just rely on the backstage, not have the ability..." Yanmiao suddenly reacted, "he is considerate..." she glanced down and looked at he Yining with a smile. "I found that Li Yunze is really a man." "Huh?" He Yining didn''t understand the meaning of yanmiao''s words. "He''s right. When you don''t love, you don''t have to be ambiguous. When you love, you have to be wholehearted..." yanmiao took a dinner plate and chose what to eat with he Yining. "Think about it, he used to be very annoying, but he took it seriously. His attitude is a high-quality man." Why did Ning zhe lower his mouth and think of Li Yunze''s sentence "don''t be afraid if you have him", he felt that he could be moved all his life. "Didn''t Zihan come with you?" He Yining asked. "She''s estimated to be coming soon, but as a reporter..." yanmiao raised her eyebrows. "Say happy, I think Zihan has been excited by hongluan recently." "Really?" Yan Miao nodded, "when you''re free later, we''ll be tortured." "Yes." ¡­¡­ Li Yunze was holding a glass of red wine in his hand, one handed pocket to deal with the crowd coming to get close to him. Occasionally, he could not see why he Yining crossed his line of sight. "Li Shao, I heard that old Lin''s operation is scheduled for this Friday?" "Yes." Li Yunze answered faintly. "The outside world is very concerned about Mr. Lin''s operation. There is absolutely no problem that Li Shao is in charge of the operation himself." Li Yunze''s alienated smile did not respond. These people''s thoughts are nothing more than to see the members of the operation team. We want to know whether the relationship between he Yining and Jin shaosi is also the reason for entering the operation team. After all, you can''t know what you are responsible for in the operation team. Even if you don''t do anything in the operating room, you can also make why Ning have a different harvest. Everyone is curious about the medical accident, but everyone is also curious about it. Li Yunze''s persistence in medicine is known by insiders. If he has had a medical accident, he will never use it again. Therefore, his attitude can often see some clues Now, looking at his indifference, it seems that no matter what he Yining''s true or false, I''m afraid it''s a certainty to kick out of the operation team. "Excuse me." Seeing Xiao Jing coming, Li Yunze nodded with the people around him and turned to meet him. "Li Shao, this is to take over Chen Shao and become the darling of the media?" Xiao Jing joked hippie. Li Yunze glanced discontentedly, "did Beichen say when to come back?" "No accident, just these two days." Xiao Jing paused and asked, "Li Shao, is there any progress in the medicine?" "There have been some breakthroughs, but if I want to go further, I want to see the current situation of Jane mo." Li Yunze''s face was slightly dignified. "People live, there will always be a way." Xiao Jing said, looking across the rest area not far away, "however, I''m also curious about why I''d rather not be kicked out of the operation team..." Chapter 1352 "It seems that you are still quite free when Beichen is not here." Li Yunze''s voice showed a trace of evil spirit, "at least have time to read gossip..." "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth and said hurriedly, "no, no, no, I''m busy!" "I don''t look like it!" "..." Xiao Jing gritted his teeth, "OK, you''re cruel... When I haven''t asked and don''t pay attention to this matter, OK?!" Ya, turn around and give Chen Shao a little wind. Chen Shao really enslaves him more and more when he sees that he is able to do it. How miserable is he?! At this moment, Xiao Jing couldn''t think of it. Even if Li Yunze didn''t say, Gu Beichen''s belly black goods finally enslaved him. Not only that, but also made him grateful to be enslaved At that time, Xiao Jing had to sigh that there was really relativity in IQ. At the reception, the reporter focused on the start-up of the winery and red wine. On the one hand, he waited for long Xin, a wine sommelier who is famous all over the world and has a very special identity. Naturally, by the way, pay attention to he Yining, who occupies a lot of headlines today. When Qu Weiwei arrived, she greeted several familiar people, and then her eyes fell on Li Yunze. She glanced at he Yining and just saw her looking at Li Yunze. Although the expression on her face was not clear because she was far away, Qu Weiwei guessed that it must be a bitter force on her face. With a proud and confident step, Qu Weiwei walks to Li Yunze, "Yunze!" Li Yunze and Xiao Jing looked over at the same time and saw Qu Weiwei and Xiao Jing nodding slightly with a smile. Xiao Jing nodded in response to the alienation, took back his sight and looked at Li Yunze, "Li SHAOHAO''s ability..." Li Yunze twitched slightly at the corners of his mouth. "I''ll say hello to president Jin..." Xiao Jing said and turned away. Qu Weiwei doesn''t like Xiao Jing very much. She''s a special assistant. She really thinks she''s the president of the emperor?! "Why are you here?" Li Yunze asked casually. "Who''s the winery in the past? Although she doesn''t have a surname now, she always has feelings..." Qu Weiwei glanced at all kinds of wines on the booth and said slowly, "but why don''t you have a cocktail party in the winery and put it in the Los Angeles hotel." "Uncle he doesn''t like commercialization very much..." Li Yunze said faintly, "restart and don''t want to dye the winery too much business. Naturally, we have to change the place." "Yes." Qu Weiwei smiled and looked around. "Would you mind recommending? I want to order a batch. You are very sharp in this aspect... Well, it''s the same as your scalpel." Li Yunze smiled faintly, neither too enthusiastic nor too cold nodded. Yanmiao is talking to he Yining about the wine named "only". When she looks across, she sees Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei together and sinks her face immediately. "How is Li Yunze with Qu Weiwei?" Yan Miao looked back. "Shit, even if I want to distance myself from you, I don''t need to be with that bitch?" He Yining looked along Li Yunze''s line of sight and felt a little uncomfortable, but he didn''t think too much and said, "I''m not an enemy. I''m old and dead when I meet." "Your heart is wide..." Yan Miao snorted discontentedly. Why rather pulled down the corners of his mouth, "you said that he would not be ambiguous if he was not together. Why don''t I have a wide heart?" "Yes." Yan Miao left his mouth and changed the subject. As the time to start the reception is getting closer and closer, there are more and more people, and the media shuttle through the crowd, waiting for time and looking for news that can be dug. "Why hasn''t Zihan come yet?" Yanmiao was puzzled, took out his mobile phone and called Fang Zihan. Fang Zihan is used to shaking his mobile phone because he often has to tell the news. At the moment of the shock, Fang Zihan was shocked because he was facing Pei Shengyao. It''s a confrontation. In fact, Fang Zihan was made hair straight in his heart by Pei Shengyao''s smiling gaze. Fang Zihan took back his sight and took out his mobile phone. Seeing that it was yanmiao, he answered the phone and hurriedly said, "I guess I''ll be late..." Then he hung up. Yan Miao looked confused and murmured, "what''s the situation? I won''t see any amazing news on the way. Are you going to be a paparazzi again?" Such a thing is not unprecedented, and yanmiao is not too surprised However, Fang Zihan felt bitter at the moment. Looking at the smile deepened a little, the lost Peisheng key said, "editor in chief, you see... I have to run the news, and I haven''t eaten any food. Don''t you think you are like this... Squeezing the hard-working people?" Pei Shengyao still smiled and didn''t speak. He just picked up the cup and drank water. He moves gracefully and looks noble, as if it was not a cup of ordinary white water, but precious jade liquid. "What do you want?" Fang Zihan drooped his shoulders. "The first time I was taken away by you, I''ll see when you are responsible for me!" Pei Shengyao''s voice was filled with a tone that people couldn''t guess, and he smashed it out, which immediately made Fang Zihan collapse. "For the first time, I haven''t asked you to take charge..." "Well, you can also call me in charge!" "..." Fang Zihan choked again. "Please, let me go. You are tall, rich and handsome. I am a poor, short and unfit... Even if we are responsible, we should be separated." Without waiting for Pei Shengyao to speak, Fang Zihan looked distressed, "I don''t care about a woman. You''re a big man, aren''t you?" "As for!" Pei Shengyao replied solemnly, "I''ve kept it for nearly 30 years." "Pei Shengyao," Fang Zihan''s face turned red and finally burst out, "I tell you, if you want to do this again, I''ll resign... I''m afraid I can''t find a job?" "Oh!" Pei Sheng''s key answered lukewarm. ¡°¡­¡­¡± Fang Zihan was so angry that what she hated most was Pei Shengyao. When she punched him, it was like hitting cotton. She was completely powerless. "Then remember to find a better lawyer, or... When it comes to the confidentiality agreement, I don''t think you can afford it." Pei Shengyao said seriously, "although you can marry me to pay off your debt, your value will be different." "..." Fang Zihan was completely speechless and choked. ¡­¡­ Blues. Mo Shaochen took a bottle of red wine from the cellar and asked the waiter to wake up. "What do you think of Yining''s?" Asked Mo Shaochen as he sat down. Dai Wen raised his eyebrows. "Winning is inevitable." He smiled with deep meaning. "There is a difference between winning technically or actually." "I saw Shuya''s monitoring, and everything I could see was OK." Mo Shaochen leaned slowly on the sofa, "if it''s just a win in technical means..." Mo Shaochen wants to stop talking. If so, no matter what the outside world thinks of he Yining or herself, I''m afraid Chapter 1353 "Moreover, there is another problem now. He Yining didn''t officially transfer to obstetrics and Gynecology, but sat in obstetrics and Gynecology..." Dai Wen picked the tail of his eyebrow and his voice was relaxed from beginning to end. This lawsuit is not difficult for him at all. Although the other party''s agency law has a good technique in this regard, he still doesn''t see it. "What I can''t figure out is..." Mo Shaochen pondered slightly and opened his mouth slowly. "Yining is very sure he didn''t prescribe wrong, but why is the prescription wrong?" After a pause, Mo Shaochen slightly tilted his head and looked to one side. "I''ve heard of Cheng Guangying. I really want a child. My wife is the first child. I should be very careful." Dai Wen shrugged. "Or why? After all, there are such examples in the world... The subconscious memory is different from the actual memory, and the parties themselves can''t know which is the real memory." Mo Shaochen looked at Dai Wen and did not refute. In such a case, he once fought. The other party bit himself and didn''t kill him. Even with firm eyes, he doubted his judgment The final result is memory bias! "Either," Dai Wen raised his eyebrows, "Cheng Guangying''s wife doesn''t want children, but she doesn''t want Cheng Guangying. She can only have an accidental abortion." "It doesn''t make sense..." Mo Shaochen said faintly, and his eyebrows deepened a little. "There''s another kind," Dai Wen continued. "Cheng Guangying doesn''t want Xia Xiao''s child, so what method did she use to make her miscarry..." "These two don''t make sense. Whether Xia Xiao or Cheng Guangying, there are many ways to not want this child. How can the problem lie in Yining''s prescription?" Mo Shaochen pointed out doubts. Dai Wen shrugged, joked casually and said, "there is hatred!" "...." Mo Shaochen smiled and did not continue to discuss the case. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles hotel. Near 9 o''clock, it is difficult to find someone at the reception on the whole first floor. Once he Jia was an irretrievable past in the rise of the new generation, while the older generation has basically given up the stage. Most of the people who came here today, except those who really have a certain preference for red wine, came to Jin shaosi, President of Jin''s group. Although Jin''s group doesn''t have many industries in Los Angeles, it has done acquisitions, mergers and acquisitions and other things vigorously in just a few months. People with foresight have already seen that Jin shaosi began to expand vigorously after stabilizing the backing of Brunei. The first step is to focus on the strong domestic consumption power. Besides, even if we didn''t deal with Jin shaosi today, we would be happy to expand our contacts. Tan Zhonglang finally checked several key brands to be launched today, and unconsciously looked for Qu Weiwei Occasionally, you can see that she is full of confidence and her smile is more appropriate to talk to people. Tan Zhonglang''s sight slightly deviated and fell on Li Yunze. Every time he looked at Qu Weiwei, Li Yunze must be nearby. Tan Zhonglang looked back and felt a little astringent. As long as he chased Qu Weiwei, she chased Li Yunze Is it love or competition?! Tan Zhonglang didn''t want to think deeply. He was afraid that he would hurt Qu Weiwei. After dealing with some people, Qu Weiwei turned around and saw Li Yunze, smiled and walked over. "You''re not in a good mood today?" Qu Weiwei said after the person who talked with Li Yunze left. Li Yunze looked at Qu Weiwei with a faint expression, "OK!" "Is it because of Yining?" Qu Weiwei said with a deep sigh, "I saw today''s news..." Li Yunze still didn''t speak, but his temples were tight. "Although Yining used to be very playful, she is not a person who ignores her life." Qu Weiwei wrung her eyebrows. "I should not prescribe the wrong medicine. Besides, Yining achieved good results in school. I heard that she was also very good in her internship." "How many doctors who had medical malpractices didn''t stay in the hospital because of their good grades and ability?" Li Yunze asked faintly. Qu Weiwei was stunned. "Yunze, don''t you doubt Yining?" Li Yunze looked back, "I only look at the facts." "Yining, I know, she..." "Can you stop talking about this now?" Li Yunze interrupted Qu Weiwei, obviously a little upset. Qu Weiwei embarrassed and nodded. As if feeling the awkward atmosphere, Li Yunze said after being silent: "sorry!" Qu Weiwei pulled the corners of her mouth and shook her head, "it''s okay." "I''ll say hello to my friend..." Li Yunze put down his words and the man crossed Qu Weiwei and left. Qu Weiwei turned back and looked at Li Yunze''s back. There were complex emotions in her eyes... When someone covered her eyes, all complex emotions turned cold. Li Yunze grew up in a medical family since childhood. With the aura of his brother who is even more talented than him, she knows how persistent he is in medicine related things. She was just testing Li Yunze''s attitude. Sure enough, how could the so-called "try" attitude resist a medical accident? He Yining''s medical accident will only make Li Yunze feel disgusted again from the bottom of his heart Qu Weiwei took back her sight and put the red wine cup in her hand on the waiter tray passing by. Her sight crossed the direction of the rest area. Even if she didn''t see he Yining, her eyes still flashed malice. He Yining, I''m waiting for the news that you were kicked out of the operation team With people''s thoughts and gossip, time passed to nine o''clock. After Jin shaosi''s simple opening, long Xin, a world-famous sommelier, personally tasted the wine and made several most suitable meals for everyone. Everyone''s focus is on red wine and Longxin. After long Xin on important occasions, his temperament is elegant and noble. It comes from his bones, not from his identity blessing Undoubtedly, because she served the wine in person, he''s winery will restart without much effort. What a whirlwind will blow in the industry. After all, long Xin can''t be hired with money. Everyone who knows her knows very well that the most direct way to invite her is to make her interested in your red wine! After the start-up reception, the people who came basically placed orders. After Li Yunze placed the order, he left without saying hello. Qu Weiwei has been paying attention to Li Yunze''s actions, or not only Li Yunze''s, but also he Yining''s. After Li Yunze left, Qu Weiwei went to he Yining. She wasn''t too close. She just wanted to see After Li Yunze left, did he explain it to he Yining! If it''s a play, after Li Yunze leaves, no matter the phone or text message... He Yining will look at his mobile phone. In Qu Weiwei''s thinking room, Li Yunze got out of the elevator, walked to the car and took out his mobile phone Chapter 1354 Li Yunze dialed a group of numbers and said, "where is it?" ¡°Devil"s kiss¡£¡± Xiao Qiang replied with some fascination, "Li Shao, are you coming now?" "Yes." Li Yunze answered faintly and opened the door to get on the bus. Xiao Qiang rubbed his eyes and answered vaguely, "Oh, I''ll wait for you here..." paused, "Li Shao, can you bring me something to eat when you come over?" "..." Li Yunze couldn''t laugh or cry, "Xiao Nan didn''t care about your dinner?" "It''s inconvenient to order takeout here. The boss went to the beach again. Xiao Yu and they don''t know where they died..." Xiao Qiang said pitifully, "by the way, will Erjing come?" "No, I''ll see you later." Li Yunze hung up the phone and drove to devil "s kiss On the way, I bought a family bucket for Xiao Qiang. Convenient and time-saving. Xiao Qiang had a chicken leg in his mouth and his fingers were flying on the keyboard. He saw a string of codes across the computer screen. When the "drop" came, he had cut into the interior of Shuya system. "Um... Um... Um..." "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth, "can you finish your chicken legs before you talk? If you make this sound, you don''t know who burst your chrysanthemum!" "..." Xiao Qiang looked at Li Yunze with the same face as eating excrement, and muttered with convulsions at the corners of his mouth, "Li Shao, you are so Li Shao, brother Xiao, do you know?" Li Yunze raised his hand and wanted to hit Xiao Qiang. Xiao Qiang shrunk his head and muttered. He didn''t know what he was humming. He was obviously dissatisfied. "If you can''t find the problem, you can find a tofu and kill yourself." Li Yunze stepped aside and took an ice water out of the fridge. "Tofu can''t die!" Xiao Qiang skimmed his lips. Li Yunze smiled falsely, "it''s all right. I''ll remember to let you hit it after it''s frozen!" "..." Xiao Qiang immediately deflated his mouth and kept feigning in his heart, but his fingers didn''t stop at all. "I found it. I''m still comfortable with brother Xiao. Qi Feng is here and doesn''t bother to talk to us... But now put us in Los Angeles. Anyway, it''s either Chen Shao or you, hum!" Looking at Xiao Qiang''s complaining voice, Li Yunze smiled, "you are a computer hacker, and you want to learn from Xiao Nan who goes out to fight and kill all day. Look at your abandoned wife... I don''t need you, and you have no place to use." "Yes, thank you!" Xiao Qiang turned his eyes. "I checked. The other party changed the list by covering the path." "If so, what''s the matter with the prescription?" Li Yunze leaned on one side of the table, "if the path is covered, shouldn''t the printed list be covered?" If so, Yining will surely find that it is impossible to print it out and give it to Xia Xiao without looking at it. "Write a code, and the coverage path is after the printer receives the instruction, that is, the printer receives the previous path..." Xiao Qiang explained while gnawing at the chicken leg. "Although there is technical content, if someone specializes in this, find a powerful person to write a code, and you can use it all the time." "Not easy to check?" Li Yunze asked. Xiao Qiang shook his head. "That''s the problem. Although I know it covers the path, if I want to find the trace, I have to find the path for the printer to receive instructions. Unfortunately... The trace has long been erased from the medical list for a weekend." "So!" Li Yunze was dissatisfied. Xiao Qiang looked helpless, "so it''s useless to know." "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth, and his eyebrows twisted deeper. Such evidence, when submitted, is simply sophistry, which will only make others gossip more about Yining, but self defeating. But if you don''t find out, time will weaken other people''s memory, and you can''t let Yining ignore this thorn in his heart. ¡­¡­ "Zihan can''t come over," yanmiao said after calling. "It seems inconvenient to hesitate." He Yining looked at the time and thought of simulated surgery tomorrow. He couldn''t help looking for Li Yunze in the venue. However, after looking around, I didn''t find where the person was. "Looking for Yunze?" Qu Weiwei came over with proud steps. "People have gone, don''t you know?" He Yining looked at Qu Weiwei''s proud appearance and sneered, "next, did you say that he told you, but didn''t tell me that our relationship is still in jeopardy?" "I didn''t say..." Qu Weiwei smiled faintly. "I just saw you looking. It''s just a kind reminder." "Thank you." Why Ning sneered and didn''t bother to reason with Qu Weiwei, indicating that yanmiao wanted to leave. "He Yining!" Why Ning stopped and turned her head slowly with indifference on her face, "Qu Weiwei, if you think you want me to make another news today, I don''t mind..." after a pause, she sniffed coldly and proudly, "I just don''t know if you want to maintain the ''noble'' image for so many years." Qu Weiwei choked as soon as she heard it. Why don''t you bother to confront Qu Weiwei and say more to her? She thinks she was stupid before. Yanmiao sneered at Qu Weiwei and left with he Yining. "Why didn''t Li Yunze tell you when he left?" Yan Miao asked. "It''s probably inconvenient..." "It''s not convenient for people to leave the meeting?" Yanmiao rolled his eyes. He Yining looked at yanmiao and didn''t speak. He just went to shaosi Jin and told him that she went back first. "I''ll see you off." "You''re still busy. I''ll just go back with Yanyan." "I''m busy because of you." Jin shaosi''s voice was calm and soft. "If you ignore you because you are busy, isn''t it putting the cart before the horse?" Why did Ning zhe lower the corner of her mouth? She didn''t know what to do for Jin shaosi, who knew there was no result and paid blindly. "Ace, do you mind giving Yining first?" Yan Miao asked after getting on the bus. "OK." Jin shaosi didn''t refuse. He knew that yanmiao had something to say to him. After seeing him off, Jin shaosi slowly said, "everyone has something they want to do. I want to be around her as a protector. There''s nothing wrong with that." "So, this is what I''m worried about." Yan Miao said, "when a person pays more, he naturally hopes to return. Everyone has a selfish side." Jin shaosi smiled, "I can never hurt her..." Talking to smart people is often simple. Yanmiao wants this promise, although he knows that sometimes a promise is farting. "I hope you do what you say!" Yan Miao sighed, "although it''s very unfair to you. There''s no fairness in lovely love..." Major Jin was silent. There is no fairness in love, it is because of how much love. Therefore, only love is unfair to him, how can he be unfair to Yining?! After sending yanmiao, Lu fancai asked, "boss, are you going to see Cheng Guangying?" Chapter 1355 "Since he wants to have a relationship with me so much..." Jin shaosi''s eyes become cold. "He always wants to show some sincerity." Lu Fan glanced at Jin shaosi from the rearview mirror, but he couldn''t understand his mind. The boss has been hiding his power and biding his time for so many years before he has made today''s achievements. He can''t figure out why he didn''t put miss he beside him when the relationship between miss he and Li Yunze is not so strong. At that time, he saw Li Yunze leave and sent miss he home. He obviously felt her loss Li Yunze''s persistence in the profession of doctor is correct, but miss he is not only a doctor, but also his girlfriend now, isn''t she?! "Go back to the hotel first." Jin shaosi said faintly. "Yes!" Lu Fan responded and turned the car back to the Los Angeles hotel. ¡­¡­ Why would you rather sit at the edge of the flower bed downstairs, with some eyes falling in front without focus, and gradually lose your mind. Her mind was a little messy. She tried to think about the process of prescribing the wrong prescription, but every time, it was the same. She didn''t make a mistake. He sighed deeply. Why would he rather take back his sight and look down at his unconscious twisted hand, thinking whether to call Li Yunze. Thinking, I held my mobile phone in my hand, but hesitated to dial it out. "I don''t know if I have something to do temporarily. If I call, will it delay him?" He Yining asked himself. "You can try it." A voice came softly. He Yining didn''t respond. Someone answered, but he answered: "but if he doesn''t answer, what if I think about it?" "That means you''re not confident enough." "I had been to him..." why Ning suddenly reacted, "ah", and jumped up. Li Yunze smiled and sat down next to why he Ning had just sat down. Looking at her under the not very bright night light, her embarrassed face turned red and patted one side gently Why would he rather bite his lips and glare at Li Yunze? He looks angry. He doesn''t look like the mother of a four-year-old child at all, but like a young girl entering college. "Why did you answer me?" He Yining accused. Li Yunze smiled. "Didn''t you tell me?" "Who told you... You weren''t there and I didn''t call. How did I tell you?" Li Yunze looked innocent, "I''m clearly there!" "..." why Ning''s mouth twitched and his face was petrified. You are, but I didn''t know you were! If I knew you were there, could I just say that? He Yining turned his mouth angrily and looked at Li Yunze''s line of sight, which was full of anger under the posture of his little daughter. Li Yunze was so stinging that he appreciated why Ning was ashamed. After a while, seeing that she didn''t move, he sighed and picked the next position on his chin, "come here!" Why rather bite the lower lip, the anger just dissipated slowly, walked happily and sat down beside Li Yunze. "Why are you here?" He Yining asked. Li Yunze leaned slightly and curled his long legs on the edge of the flower bed. His body naturally leaned on why he Ning. He Yining tilted his body, then instinctively supported his strength and let Li Yunze lean against him. "When I left, I had something to deal with. I thought that Jin shaosi''s goods would be sent back to you. I just came to you after dealing with it..." Li Yunze tilted his head slightly and smiled with evil charm at the corners of his mouth. In the moonlight, he was hazy, especially soft and beautiful. "Who knows, when I came over, I saw your tangled self-talk and simply took the words..." Li Yunze took back his sight and his eyes became soft, "he Yining, you are as stupid as when you were a child." "I think that''s the condition of instinctive reflex," he Yining stressed. "Instinctive reflex!" "Yes, instinctive reflex." Li Yunze raised his eyes with a smile. There are many stars in the ink sky, which indicates that it will be a good weather tomorrow. "I won''t announce that you will stay in the operation team tomorrow." Li Yunze spoke slowly, "it is estimated that there will be a new round of speculation..." He Yining didn''t speak.. "Yining, can you withstand the pressure?" Li Yunze asked, with a complicated voice. He Yining didn''t answer immediately. After pondering, he realized what Li Yunze wanted to ask?! "I can," he Yining replied seriously, "Li Yunze, the profession of doctor is of special significance to you. For me, too, I will not ignore the entrustment of any patient for my own personal reasons." Li Yunze smiled, relieved. Why should such a be peaceful? Why couldn''t he see it before? Obviously, she is not so vicious, but why is what he sees different from her now? He Yining took a deep breath and said, "Li Yunze, you don''t have to comfort me. Do you think I will have a burden on the operation after this thing?" "Old Lin is different from ordinary patients. He is not in Los Angeles. Beichen and I should take care of him instead." Li Yunze didn''t lie, "do you have a burden... Say no at all, that''s lying to you..." He Yining can understand not only the feelings of Li Yunze, Gu Beichen and Lin Nanan, but also his concerns. "Yining, old Lin''s operation, I silently thought about all the procedures. Time is very important!" Li Yunze said. "Then I''ll show you how well I know you!" Why rather pick an eyebrow, "well, understand your operation habit!" Li Yunze smiled and asked, "how much have you secretly watched my operation video?" "As long as there are videos, I''ve watched them at least seven or eight times..." he Yining answered. Halfway through his words, he suddenly reacted and couldn''t help being a little embarrassed. "Well, I''m stupid and I always have to see more famous surgeries... Well, yes, that''s it... After all, you''re famous!" Li Yunze laughed and sat up. Looking at why Ning was embarrassed, he grabbed her and kissed her "Don''t... here..." Why Ning didn''t finish his words, but he was swallowed by Li Yunze. She closed her eyes and deeply indulged in Li Yunze''s tenderness Moonlight, flower fragrance, evening wind... Lover''s kiss. All this makes he Yining uneasy. He always feels that happiness comes too fast and may be a flash in the pan. ¡­¡­ "Boss," Su ruomin greeted Jin shaosi when she saw him coming back. "Long Xin has left and left a message before leaving." Jin shaosi looked at Su ruomin and listened to her smile and said, "miss he is a very resilient woman, which is very suitable for you!" Jin shaosi drooped his eyes and smiled. He knew it was right for him Cute love is not just suitable. "In addition, Cheng Guangying has just ordered a batch of red wine, which is estimated to be used for the summit in two months." Su ruomin said skillfully, "of course, I also want to win over Jin''s group." Jin shaosi''s face was completely indifferent, "I''m afraid he will regret..." "Does boss still plan to acquire?" Su ruomin asked. "No," Jin shaosi''s face gradually shrouded in a haze, and his voice was cold and heartless. "He likes to find a lawyer so much, and I hope next... He can find a better lawyer!" Chapter 1356 Li Yunze didn''t go back to his apartment. In the house he Yining rented, on the small double bed, Li Yunze relaxed his enthusiasm "Shall we buy a villa next to Beichen?" Li Yunze buried in he Yining''s shoulder socket said, "in that way, you can play with Xiaojie one by one, and you don''t have to be oppressed." "It''s inconvenient to go to work..." "I''ll see you off!" Li Yunze got up and looked up. He Yining said, "you can drive by yourself." He Yining looked at Li Yunze''s resentful look on the bed, smiled and said, "but I like it here!" "..." Li Yunze turned aside with a slight sigh and took why Ning was in his arms. "Forget it, let''s talk about where to live! Go back and ask one by one if she wants to be a neighbor with Xiaojie." "Of course she would if you asked one by one." He Yining is dissatisfied. Li Yunze raised his eyebrows, "Yining, do you know..." "Huh?" Why did Ning turn over and look at Li Yunze. Li Yunze looked down at her and said with a smile, "Beichen had a son before. He looked very proud... I didn''t say it in my mouth. I don''t want to mention kicking him. I see he''s still proud." "And then?" "I was unhappy, so I said fiercely that I would have a daughter later, and then take his son..." Li Yunze smiled. "Unexpectedly, I really have a daughter who has a good relationship with Xiaojie. You don''t know. I''m cool." He Yining fanned his eyelashes and imagined what it would be like to be with Xiaojie one by one. Suddenly, he felt very beautiful. "But..." Li Yunze suddenly worried, "one by one, Xiaojie is obviously the same as you did to me when you were a child. My daughter won''t work as hard as you when you look back!" "..." why did Ning twitch at the corners of his mouth. Say daughter, say daughter, what do you say about her?! Li Yunze frowned, "no, I have to go back and instill some cold and arrogant temperament one by one. How can I let Beichen''s son run after my daughter..." he nodded seriously and said, "it must be so!" He Yining knows the sadness of chasing. Naturally, she doesn''t like her daughter to be like her "In the first four years, I taught them one by one, and then I''ll give them to you..." he Yining said. "I''ll learn how to ignore other people''s pursuit with you." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth, suddenly turned over and pressed why Ning under his body, "are you accusing me?" "No..." "No?" "No!" "Really not..." "Ha ha ha, yes... Li Yunze, please be gentle..." "Ah... You... Too deep..." "Light... Um..." The charming breath filled the small bedroom in an instant. Before being busy, it baptized all the nerves of he Yining just like the storm. The next day, the sunshine of Los Angeles spread in the sky early. In the morning news in Los Angeles, the topic of yesterday continues. "At present, the official has not given a clear answer whether Lin''s operation team can continue to stay in the operation team due to medical accidents..." the anchor said, "According to relevant sources, Li Shao has never tolerated any doctor who has had a medical accident. In this case, Li Shao''s attitude will be the key to the survival of the operation team... This station will continue to pay attention to this matter." He Yining listened to the radio and ate the fried bag Li Yunze had just bought on the roadside. His voice was a little unclear and said, "they say your attitude determines my future!" "Yes." Li Yunze answered with a smile, "so, you stay!" Why would you rather curl your mouth and put half of the steamed stuffed bun in your mouth? Hum and haw, I don''t know what to say Li Yunze took out the meal paper, leaned over and wiped the corners of why Ning''s mouth. "Let others die for what they think or think of you. Just do it yourself." "Yes." He Yining answered with a smile, "your support is better than everything!" "Necessary..." Li Yunze started the car and took he Yining to the general manager of the army. Just when he Yining followed Li Yunze into the surgical simulation, the news outside was suddenly provoked and fermented by interested people. Public opinion is widely discussed in micro-blog, forum and private friends circle, and even in the official account. Many people feel that if He Yining''s doctors can be reused, what is the reason for that day? Fang Zihan called yanmiao, "what''s the situation? Isn''t Li Yunze going to deal with it?" "I don''t know. Yining must be in the operation team, but I don''t know why. There''s no official there to say..." yanmiao also can''t figure it out. "I don''t know what''s going on. Let the outside world speculate more and more about Yining." "Shit, what does Li Yunze think?" "At present, Yining''s phone can''t get through, and the preparation before the operation should be accurate. After all, the people above attach great importance to..." yanmiao is also a headache. "Forget it, as long as Yining is not affected and completes the operation well first, what I''m worried about now is that public opinion is like this, and she will be under pressure later." "I don''t think so." Fang Zihan glanced. "Don''t I know you better? Except that she is retarded and soft in Li Yunze''s affairs, she is stupid in trusting others, and the rest is just like Xiaoqiang." Yanmiao agrees with this. "No, I want to write a post..." Fang Zihan skimmed. "I don''t believe I''m a graduate of journalism, but I can''t beat those nonsense." Just do it. Fang Zihan hung up and hurried to the office. But when the talent entered the magazine, he was shouted, "Zihan, the editor in chief asked you to go there... He doesn''t look very well. Be careful." "Shit, is it over?!" Fang Zihan immediately became angry. When he saw the people around him looking at him one after another, he immediately grinned secretly, "ha ha, I''m just afraid of being scolded, afraid of being scolded!" Fang Zihan drooped his shoulders and went to Pei Shengyao''s office under the sympathetic eyes of everyone. ¡­¡­ "According to reliable news," the news anchor said to the camera, "the operation team has given a clear answer to why Yining medical accident. Such people are not allowed to stay in the operation team... It is reported that Li Yunze has not raised any objection." As soon as the news came out, people who paid attention to the matter understood one thing in succession. Since Li Yunze has no objection, it seems that he Yining''s affair this time is a real hammer. "However, I don''t know why Lin asked him to stay in the operation team." The anchor continued, "even, on the grounds that if she doesn''t stay, she will give up the operation, forcing the operation team not to kick out the medical tumor!" ¡­¡­ meanwhile. Jin shaosi sat in the outdoor leisure area of Hejia winery, looking slightly at the green plants in front of him. Su ruomin came over, "boss, Cheng Guangying is coming!" Chapter 1357 Jin shaosi took back his sight and motioned to Su ruomin. Su ruomin nodded clearly and turned to bring Cheng Guangying. Cheng Guangying is 36 years old. In front of Jin shaosi, who is seven or eight years younger than himself, his obvious momentum is a little shorter. It is not only a question of status, but also a question of sharpening. Jin shaosi''s ten years have been "bloody", and Cheng Guangying''s venture capital is basically on the road of nouveau riche. "President Jin," Cheng Guangying handed his business card with a grin, "thank you for taking the time to meet in your busy schedule." Jin shaosi took the business card indifferently, lowered his eyes, glanced lightly, and put it on the table, "sit down." Cheng Guangying sat down, as if he couldn''t see the sense of alienation on Jin shaosi. His mouth didn''t stop since he sat down. I don''t know whether Jin shaosi was tired of listening or something. After a while, he said faintly, "President Cheng knows why I see you?" Cheng Guangying was stunned. "Did President Cheng read the news about the launch of the winery last night?" Jin shaosi asked again. Cheng Guangying grinned secretly. Although he ordered a batch of red wine last night, he really didn''t watch the news. "Although it has not been widely reported, I think the people around president Cheng should also mention one or two?" Jin shaosi''s voice was very gentle from beginning to end. Cheng Guangying was mentioned that if he didn''t know anything, he would be fooling around in the circle in vain. "President Jin means..." Cheng Guangying asked tentatively, "why do you prefer?" The press release launched by the winery was full of reports on red wine and Longxin wine. As for the guests, they only mentioned some big people, and there was no reason to be peaceful. Naturally, Jin shaosi doesn''t allow her name to appear in the news and let others point it out. But there is nothing wrong with those present. Jin shaosi didn''t answer after Cheng Guangying said something. He asked me how to do something. Naturally, he didn''t need to be too clear. Jin shaosi changed the topic. After that, he didn''t mention anything about he Yining. The topic was entirely about venture capital injection and other things. When Cheng Guangying left, he was "flushed", but I''m afraid only he knew whether he was in deep water or not. The sound of "pa" came, followed by the sound of broken glass. Xia Xiao shivered at Cheng Guangying''s anger. This morning, she left the hospital and went home to recuperate. Cheng Guangying sent her back to meet her customers Is it because things are not going well? "What?!" Cheng Guangying gnashed his teeth and said, "my son is gone. Do you still expect me to compromise? It''s just an external group. I really think I don''t have a backstage?!" ¡­¡­ "The procedure and process of the operation are demonstrated today..." Li Yunze took off his VR glasses, looked at the personnel involved in the operation and said, "in order to clarify all the details, today''s simulation time exceeded my expected operation time by two hours..." Professor Wang nodded, "that is to say, the formal operation will be shortened by two hours compared with today''s simulated operation!" "No," said Li Yunze calmly, "it takes a shorter time." After hearing this, they looked at each other. People here have had surgery for at least ten years. Everyone knows that it is very difficult to simulate two hours less than today. If we want to shorten it to shorter, we are not very optimistic. Besides, there may be unpredictable problems during the operation "Hard work, everyone." Li Yunze and the crowd nodded and took the lead in turning away. The simulated operation lasted for 12 hours. From 9 a.m. to 9 p.m., everyone''s legs were numb. The most important thing is that this operation is replaced by others, and Li Yunze is the main knife from beginning to end, that is to say, his physical strength and endurance are the key to supporting the whole operation The night outside is filled with stars dotted the sky. Why would you rather sit in the lounge chair in the corridor, knead your swollen calf and hold your mouth tightly. Li Yunze poured two glasses of water and handed him Yining a cup. "You''ll have a good rest at home tomorrow and the day after tomorrow. The operation time the day after tomorrow is set between 9 o''clock and 10 o''clock..." He Yining nodded and looked at Li Yunze suspiciously. "I''ve seen so many surgical videos of you. No matter how long, I''ve never seen you look a little tired..." she frowned. "Won''t you be tired?" Li Yunze slowly leaned back on the chair, his eyes fell on the white wall in front, and his eyes let loose. How can someone stand for more than ten hours without getting tired? Even if standing in vain will be tired, not to mention standing under the high concentration of nerves?! "Because I bear the responsibility of my brother..." Li Yunze didn''t know why. He easily told him the secret that Gu Beichen didn''t say at the bottom of his heart. The boy named Li Yunhao, just like his name, was destined to brighten everyone''s sight. He seems to be the perfect boy created by God, whether in clinical medicine or pharmacy, or in the operating room... He is the pride of heaven. When he was a child, he almost grew up in pharmaceutical factories and laboratories. He entered the operating room to observe and observe at a very young age. At the age of 15, he won the international prize of geldana foundation, and the research results of less than 20 years old won the Nobel Prize He is not only the pride of the Li family, but also the pride of the country in the field of medicine. But it was such a young man who was in high spirits and was envied by God, which made him fall into the evil of human nature. He Yining remembered the young man, although when she began to chase Li Yunze, Li Yunhao had gone to school abroad and rarely came back. But every time he came back, he would smile and say to her: Xiao Yining, haven''t you caught up with my Yunze? Try harder. My Yunze is yours! Why Ning''s hand gently covered Li Yunze''s hand, which can save many people and bear the responsibility. "Brother Hao will be proud of you in heaven!" He Yining looked at Li Yunze firmly and said. Li Yunze tilted his head and smiled at the sight of he Yining That kind of smile is not relief or giving up pressure, but if you are unhappy, there is someone around you, and that person is exactly what you want... It''s good. "I won''t see you off," Li Yunze said. "Remember to eat first and then go home." He Yining nodded, "then you..." "We have to deal with some follow-up problems later." "Then you remember to eat..." he Yining explained. Li Yunze nodded, "I know, go, go back to rest early, and then go through the operation procedure these two days." Why should Ning make a noise, get up, change clothes and leave. However, she didn''t expect that just after she left the military general hospital, she was surrounded by several reporters squatting nearby "Miss He, can you tell me how you feel about staying in the operation team after a medical accident?" "Excuse me, where are you in the operation of old Lin? Are you just staying, but you won''t participate in the main process of the operation?" "Miss He, I heard that you used your friends'' convenience to put pressure on general manager Cheng Guang of Chengguang venture capital in an attempt to ask him to withdraw the notice of your medical accident. Is it true?" Chapter 1358 He Yining looked at the reporter with a muddled face. While taking photos of her, he held up the radio and kept asking questions. She frowned slightly. She was no stranger to such a battle. After all, she was surrounded by the media in her childhood "Miss He, none of the members of the operation team left. Did you come out first because you are still pending?" "Miss He, can you explain why your friend''s private contact with President Cheng is really the same as what the outside world says, trying to cover up the truth and erase the fact of your medical accident?" "An unformed little life is also life. The medical accident under your wrong medicine is to kill life. Miss He, have you ever felt guilty?" "Miss he..." "Excuse me..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The voice waves across, with sharp words, not everyone can resist. He Yining couldn''t help but be forced to step back. Seeing that the reporters didn''t intend to let her go at all, she gritted her teeth and said, "I didn''t prescribe the wrong medicine, I swear!" "If you swear to be useful, God can''t thunder every day?" A reporter sneered, "if it''s not true that you prescribe the wrong medicine, how can president Jin of Jin''s group make a private appointment with Cheng Guangying?" The reporter said that he had taken out his mobile phone and opened a report in the afternoon in front of he Yining. In the photo, Jin shaosi looked at Cheng Guangying in the opposite direction, but Cheng Guangying''s expression was a little tangled and helpless In addition, after the writer who looked at the picture contacted the whole thing, he talked about it in a big way. It was clear that Cheng Guangying was talking about investment with Jin shaosi, but Jin shaosi used his ability to force Cheng Guangying to give up the complaint. Even, the report said that it is an indisputable fact that why Ning prescribes the wrong medicine. Even if Cheng Guangying gives up telling under the power, the society will not allow such medical cancer to exist. He Yining looked at the report in surprise. "It''s impossible. How can ace use his identity to press Cheng Guangying? I haven''t done it before, and why do I need to press it? I''m not afraid of being confirmed. What do I need to solve privately?" "Originally, miss he really knew Jin all the time..." a reporter suddenly realized. He Yining twisted his eyebrows and stared at the reporter. "Please draw the key points and the right place. If you don''t learn Chinese well, please go back and repair it!" "Is it that I didn''t draw the right place, or that miss he is unreasonable, and the public has its own conclusion..." the reporter sneered. "Li Shao''s attitude is the best proof. I think everyone knows this." Why can''t Ning talk to so many people with one mouth? Although she hasn''t flinched from beginning to end, she tries her best to prove for herself But all this fell into the eyes of others and became that she had a backstage and had no fear. * Mo Shaochen drove Li Yunze out of the general military hospital. They looked at he Yining surrounded by reporters and crossed "indifferently". "You just let her be accused?" Mo Shaochen looked at Li Yunze, the co pilot, saw that his whole face was taut, took back his eyes and said, "I hope Yining has the willfulness of not retreating when chasing this matter." "I believe her..." Li Yunze said slowly, "she can make it." Mo Shaochen looked at Li Yunze again and didn''t speak. Li Yunze looked at the crowd of reporters from the reversing mirror and took back his sight after he hurried into a passing taxi From small to large, I''m afraid Yining is just not confident in him, isn''t he? "Did you really decide to do this?" Asked Mo Shaochen. "Yes." Li Yunze answered, and a touch of pain under uncertainty crossed his eyes. "I''m curious about how you made your rival promise to help you..." Mo Shaochen said. "After all, it''s not good for him at all. You''ve taken advantage of everything." "Jin shaosi is a character." Li Yunze said and leaned slowly against the seat. He was ashamed to let Yining chase after her for so many years. Finally, although he fell in love with her, compared with Jin shaosi, his love was really too little, too little! "Li Yunze, I''m not helping you, I''m helping Yining." Jin shaosi said, "also, as an opponent, I advise you not to walk on the tightrope at the edge of the cliff. After all, when things reach the extreme, they will turn around. Many times, dangerous games will put you in danger." "How dangerous?" Li Yunze replied, "it''s better than letting Yining bear it again and again every time things come out." "It''s because you have such a purpose that I help... And what you doubt also needs to be confirmed by yourself. After all, what others say, you can''t feel, how it is stuck in your throat!" Jin shaosi''s last words left Li Yunze with a deep sea, making people unable to see the deep line of sight. Jin shaosi is a predator. He has been used to plundering for ten years. Li Yunze doesn''t know how deep his love is to endure the plundering of he Yining. Li Yunze just knew that there was a jackal waiting for the opportunity at any time to take Yining away! Yining I regret missing you for so many years now. Then, let me solve the trouble around you and be with you wholeheartedly How are you?! Li Yunze closed his eyes and his mind was full of the scenes of the past and his relationship with he Yining getting worse and worse. At first, although he hated her, he never hated her When did he begin to dislike her and even avoid her?! Li Yunze''s thoughts turned. Some things were not connected, but they were inexplicably connected. Xia Xiao visited the clinic twice, but both of them happened to be Yining. The first time is to replace the shift, and the second time is to arrange the shift Where do so many coincidences come from in this world? "It''s hard for us to make others feel better. I''m a little unwilling!" Li Yunze opened his eyes and said. "Few venture capitalists are clean behind their backs..." Mo Shaochen said. "In addition, after studying with Dai Wen, Cheng Guangying has been saying that his son is gone and that the first one is definitely a son. The problem may lie in his son!" "In other words, it is possible that this son is not a son..." Li Yunze said with a sneer. "However, so small, how can you see the difference between men and women?" Mo Shaochen frowned. "The blood test can be distinguished, but there is no one in China at present." Li Yunze looked at him, "it''s against the natural phenomenon. Huakang didn''t do it!" "That''s easy to handle..." Mo Shaochen smiled. "As long as the facts exist, no matter how rigorous, there are always clues left." If Xia Xiao has had a blood test, he can naturally find the record. Chapter 1359 He Yining didn''t eat. When he got home, he sat on the sofa with great popularity. All the noise in his mind was the questions of the reporter. Take out your mobile phone, why would you rather dial Jin shaosi''s phone However, just when I was about to press the dial out key, why would I rather stop suddenly. The anger that had shackled the mood gradually subsided and calmed down. How could ace be photographed with such imaginative photos at such a moment? Coincidence or something? It''s impossible for ASI not to believe that she didn''t prescribe the wrong prescription and knew that Dai Wen had filed a lawsuit against her. How can he talk to Cheng Guangying about the medical malpractice dispute at this time? The reporter scribbled. Is she angry and going to lose her mind?! He Yining put down his mobile phone, leaned powerlessly on the sofa, looked at the ceiling lamp and shriveled his mouth. "It must be a villain..." he Yining said with gnashing teeth and fell on the sofa. One by one, she found that if Li Yunze didn''t care about her, she would be lazy Why would you rather open wechat and watch her flash a pile of information with yanmiao and Fang Zihan. When I opened it, it was really a report about the meeting between Jin shaosi and Cheng Guangying. Finally, both yanmiao and Fang Zihan left messages and asked her to tell them after the simulated operation. "I''ve returned home. I''m directly besieged by reporters outside the general manager of the army. I think you can see the news on the Internet now..." he Yining said. "I don''t want to take care of anything now. I listen to Li Yunze and only focus on the operation." "Anyway, there are many misunderstandings from small to large, and that''s what happened..." "I''m fine. You don''t have to worry. When the operation is over and the court starts next week, I believe Devon will give me the truth." Yanmiao quickly came back: "good, good attitude. Sure enough, with Li Yunze, why would you rather have the world? Everything else is bullshit." Fang Zihan clenched his teeth: "I just saw it. It''s too late to say hello to you, because I''m writing a post!" When Fang Zihan finished, his fingers began to beat on the keyboard, ''crackling'', as if all his anger was on the keyboard. Soon, a post with both voice and emotion, correcting those vicious thoughts, but also very objective, was published on the Internet. The post soon became a hot post, not supporting her remarks, but scolding her for her three wrong views! "Shit, a bunch of flirtatious bitches!" Fang Zihan was furious. "I''m a media player. Don''t you know that some things get darker and darker?" There was a sneer, with a hint of banter. Fang Zihan suddenly looked back and saw Pei shengkey with his arms around his chest, some lazily leaning on the work grid, and his eyes fell on her computer screen. "General manager, editor!" Fang Zihan gnashed his teeth. "It''s so late that you don''t go back?" "No one on the bed warms the quilt and doesn''t want to go back." Pei Shengyao said with a serious face, and his eyes fell on Fang Zihan''s face as if it had been crossed by a flash of lightning. "How about warming my quilt, I''ll make you dinner, and then help you scold those people." "Bah!" Fang Zihan clenched his teeth angrily, suddenly got up, pulled the bag and said with gnashing teeth, "Pei Shengyao, go and have your big dream! I need you to cook and scold war? Hum!" After humming coldly, Fang Zihan left with a proud step under Pei Shengyao''s smile Pei Shengyao didn''t move, smiled and shook his head, "stupid!" He just saw that she hadn''t gone so far, scolded her "excited", and estimated that if she wasn''t allowed to go, she could squat here all night and fight with those people. Pei Shengyao''s sight fell on Fang Zihan''s open computer again. In the quiet space, the sound of opening and closing the elevator floated in from the outside He sat down, his slender fingers flying quickly on the keyboard, but in a moment, he had entered the DOS page. The instructions passed quickly under his hand, flashing one by one. With the sound of "Di", Pei shengkey has transferred the IP address of the first theme post secretly photographed by Cheng Guangying and Jin shaosi today. He just looked at it roughly. After a strange smile appeared at the corners of his mouth, his fingers turned again and a small program was written into the other party''s computer ¡°Duang£¡¡± The other party''s computer suddenly made a sound, and then I saw a wisp of smoke from the mainframe "Ah", the man hurried to save, but everything happened so fast that he had no time to deal with it. "God, my information... Many of them have not been sold yet!" The man collapsed and held his head in his hands. "How can the motherboard suddenly smoke?" A sharp wail came out of a residential area in the night of Los Angeles ¡­¡­ "Ding Dong!" The doorbell rang suddenly. Why should I wake up suddenly. She looked vaguely at the light, stung her eyes and hurried to avoid it. She just fell asleep "Ding Dong!" The doorbell rang again. Why did Ning get up and go to the door, "who?" "Wangjianglou takeout!" take-out food?! "I didn''t order takeout!" Sure enough, he Ning took it out from the cat''s house. He Yining opened the door and the other party took out the food box. "Miss he? Please sign for it!" He Yining signed, "thank you!" She brought in the takeout, and the exquisite lunch box was filled with the unique delicacy of the grand hotel. Open it. There''s a handwritten note in it. "I''m afraid I''m angry when I heard that someone was surrounded by reporters. I forgot what I told you to eat first! I''m worried about my life. Can I sneak into your quilt tonight..." "Pooh Pooh", why would you rather laugh. "Hum, so you are such a Li Yunze, rascal!" Why would you rather curl your lips? She was so tired and angry that she forgot to be hungry. Suddenly she was hungry. He Yining sent a text message to Li Yunze while eating: I will lock the door tonight! When Li Yunze received it, he just broke up with Mo Shaochen and got on the bus. He smiled and replied: take an early rest after eating and don''t think about anything. Even if the facts seen by his eyes sometimes may not be true. He Yining thought about the meaning of Li Yunze''s sentence for a while before asking: Li Yunze, do you want to tell me that drama is like life, life is like drama, true or false?! Li Yunze''s eyes were deep, sighed, and replied: what I want to say is that since you have been persistent to me for so many years, remember to persist Why would she rather bite her chopsticks and look at the message? I don''t know why. She always feels that something has happened. She seems to be able to guess, but when she tries to think about it, she can''t figure it out. Chapter 1360 M3 Bar¡£ Light music is full of eardrums, and people''s nervous mood seems to be relieved slowly. Li Yunze, beside the bar, was faced with a glass of M3 bar''s unique "last night''s stars" mixed wine, which became brilliant under the dim light. "Yunze?!" As soon as Qu Weiwei came in, she saw Li Yunze in front of the bar and walked forward, "it''s really you!" Li Yunze put one arm on the bar, curled up his hand slightly, supported his chin on the back of his hand, and looked at Qu Weiwei sitting aside. "Do you like the ''stars of last night''?" Qu Weiwei smiled and glanced at the wine in front of Li Yunze. "After coming back, she came here with her friends once. Since then, she has liked this wine with special name and great taste." Li Yunze indifferently took back his sight and gently twisted the glass with his fingers. After drinking boss Long''s wine mixing, the wine mixing outside will be dim. Like?! Li Yunze chuckled and didn''t speak. "I see something on my mind?" Qu Weiwei also asked for a cup of ''last night''s stars'', "is it still because of Yining?" Li Yunze frowned slightly, still didn''t speak, but looked at Qu Weiwei. "Read the report," Qu Weiwei shrugged gently. "You don''t want Yining in the operation team, but Lin supported it." "This matter has not been fully implemented, but I don''t want controversial people to affect the operation." Li Yunze took back his sight, "after all, during the operation, the psychological quality is not good, and it is easy to have big problems." "Yining should not? She has been a doctor for so many years..." Qu Weiwei frowned. Li Yunze put a faint sneer on the corner of his mouth and said in a lukewarm voice: "if the psychological quality really passes the test, there will be no chance to prescribe the wrong medicine for criticism." It sounded like a helpless word, which fell into Qu Weiwei''s ear and couldn''t help laughing in her heart. Yunze looked as if there was no evidence, but it was obvious that he had believed that he Yining had written the wrong prescription. "Yining feels as if she has been lowered. Everything can be brought to her..." Qu Weiwei sighed heavily. "Today, ASI and Cheng Guangying talked about investment and were also taken out by interested people to make an article." Li Yunze suddenly frowned and looked at Qu Weiwei puzzled. After listening to her talk about things, she said reluctantly: "based on my understanding of ACE, even if he wants to meet Cheng Guangying to talk about Yining, it is impossible for him to look at pictures and speak in a place where people can capture pictures casually. It has always been the best thing for the media." Li Yunze''s face was a little dark, even mixed with a touch of anger. He yunning and he yunning have reached the bottom line of his medical accident. He yunning and he yunning know very well. Li Yunze picked up the wine glass and poured a glass of mixed wine into his mouth at one breath. Qu Weiwei''s eyes darkened, and then said with worry, "I believe in Yining. Since she believes she didn''t drive wrong, there must be some reason for the mistake..." paused, "Yunze, do you think it''s a hacker?" "Oh," Li Yunze put down his glass and sneered, "who has time to deal with her? Just to make her write the wrong prescription and cause others to miscarry?" In a word, Qu Weiwei choked. Li Yunze withdrew his sight coldly, his eyes narrowed slightly, and a strange light crossed his eyes. Just like many years, no matter how he said Yining, Qu Weiwei tried her best to defend her. Is he thinking too much, or do some people hide their thoughts too deeply?! Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei talked while drinking. The operation was on Friday. Li Yunze drank recklessly at the moment. Qu Weiwei looked at him in a gloomy mood and didn''t persuade him to drink. Finally, Li Yunze didn''t know whether he was too tired or drank too much, and his whole head was dizzy. "Yunze, you can''t drink any more..." Qu Weiwei frowned and pressed Li Yunze''s hand to get the cup. "If you can''t figure it out, why don''t you ask Yining? I think she won''t lie to you!" "Ask?" Li Yunze smiled coldly with drunken eyes. "Do I know if it''s a medical accident? Can''t I see it? Ask her? Give her a chance to cheat me?" "No!" Qu Weiwei said with a corner of her mouth, "Yining loves you so much. How can she lie to you? Since you are with her, why don''t you believe her?" She tilted her head and smiled at herself, "when you are with me, you are careless, and you don''t have any trust with her. Li Yunze, do you take the women around you seriously?" Li Yunze sneered, threw away Qu Weiwei and continued to drink, "Qu Weiwei, do you know what the doctor means to me?" He said vaguely, "that''s a belief that can''t be blasphemed!" With that, Li Yunze was already lying on the bar. Qu Weiwei pushed it several times. Seeing that he didn''t move, she twisted her eyebrows and checked out, and helped Li Yunze to walk outside the M3 bar. "Where do you live? I''ll take you back!" Qu Weiwei said. Li Yunze didn''t know what to say. Qu Weiwei sighed, stuffed him into the car and said, "Yudu apartment..." The taxi driver answered, started the car and drove to Yudu apartment. Just after driving for no more than two minutes, Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze leaning against the door and twisted her eyebrows. "Forget it, I''d better go to the nearby Sofia Hotel." Speaking, she seemed to sigh and said, "when I wake up in my house, I can''t tell the reason... Yining''s relationship with me is getting worse and worse because of the things between you and me." Tucao finished, Qu Wei Wei did not make complaints about Li Yunze until he arrived at the Sophia Hotel. Then he helped Li Yunze stumble into the hotel. Outside the hotel, especially outside the big hotel, there are often paparazzi in twos and threes hanging around. When they saw Qu Weiwei holding the drunken Li Yunze into the hotel, their sensitive sense of smell made them don''t need to think. They had ''clicked'' and pressed the camera to record this moment. "There was a rumor that Vivian and Li Shao were close. It seems true..." "Didn''t you say simulated surgery today? I''m so tired and I have to drink with my beauty to open a room. It seems... Hey, hey!" "Fortunately, I didn''t keep it today..." While several paparazzi exchanged their experience, they sent their photos back to their media platform in an attempt to compete for the first news. The paparazzi outside are very busy. Qu Weiwei opens a room and puts Li Yunze on the bed. She is already out of breath. Qu Weiwei stood by the bed and looked at Li Yunze''s drunken look and narrowed her eyes slightly. From what Xin Jianyu heard, if she guessed right, why Ning had the chance to sleep with Li Yunze when he was drunk at the medical school party more than four years ago Thinking, Qu Weiwei slowly sat down beside the bed and looked at Li Yunze''s vision, which gradually became complex and changeable, as if... Something was surging! Chapter 1361 From small to large, Qu Weiwei has been living behind he Yining. Even if you look at Li Yunze, you can only look behind he Yining At that time, her mother always said to her: Weiwei, who gave you today? You must study hard and return to who. ha-ha! Study hard so that you can go back to where to be a servant? no From that moment on, she told herself that she must get rid of such a fate. Why should she be born a young lady and a servant? Facts have proved that she can also become a person of honor, and he Yining will be inferior to her, won''t she?! But what? No matter how hard she tries, no matter how much she wants to get something or people she can''t get, she can get it in the end... Why?! Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze without blinking, taking off the childishness and vitality of her youth. Now he is charming. If she had thought about Li Yunze before, it was only because he Yining wanted it. So now Qu Weiwei closed her mouth and looked at Li Yunze''s line of sight, which became very complicated. "Yunze, you never know how much I want to love you beyond Yining..." Qu Weiwei smiled mockingly, "but I''m always the one living behind her back." Whispered words, showing self pity under self mockery. Qu Weiwei covered Li Yunze again, got up, sighed gently, turned and left the room. At the moment when the door closed, Li Yunze slowly opened his eyes. She frowned slightly, and her mind echoed what Qu Weiwei had just said, and even her behavior. Is he thinking too much? Li Yunze slowly sat up, his sight fell in front, and gradually became deep. * Qu Weiwei didn''t leave the hotel. She opened another room next to Li Yunze. Los Angeles is bustling and beautiful at night. Sitting on the lazy cushion in front of the French window, his vision fell outside, and the corners of his mouth slowly drew a sneer. She hasn''t seen Li Yunze get drunk. She just remembers that he Yining once said that Li Yunze and Gu Beichen bet and drank a lot of wine before they got drunk. Today, although Li Yunze also drank a lot, he almost drank mixed liquor and spirits. But are you really drunk? She''s not sure. She''s not sure. At that moment, at that moment, she almost wanted to do the same thing. The night after he Yining and Li Yunze got drunk. Almost, she suddenly thought, what if Li Yunze wasn''t so drunk? If he is only worried about what he Yining is doing, and that''s all, doesn''t her behavior disgust him?! Qu Weiwei looked back, took the red wine from the waiter, poured a glass and took a shallow sip. If she doesn''t leave the hotel, naturally there will be reporters squatting outside to write something. He Yining saw that if he didn''t ask Li Yunze, he would feel uncomfortable. Besides, Li Yunze didn''t believe she was ahead. If you ask Qu Weiwei sneered, "Yining, you know Li Yunze, so I know him with your blessing... Once you ask, his control will only annoy you more." Ask, don''t ask! He Yining, I''m afraid you can''t help it even if you get stuck in your throat. Just as Qu Weiwei thought, she entered the hotel with Li Yunze, but the paparazzi didn''t see her leave. It can be imagined that during Lin Lao''s operation, Li Yunze''s news suddenly blew a wave. "Shit, bitch!" Fang Zihan jumped up directly from his chair at home. She looked at the news on the computer angrily, her eyes staring like a copper bell, her hands raised and clenched her fists, looking like she wanted to smash the computer screen at any time. "Li Yunze, you..." Fang Zihan looked at the picture and said with gnashing teeth, "if you and Qu Weiwei''s scheming bitch are what''s the matter, even if I make why Yining hate, you can''t expect to be with Yining in your life... Ah ah... I''m so angry!" She hasn''t finished scolding those people. Now Li Yunze has such a news again. Now, there are all kinds of things to say. Why was the medical accident still left in the operation team? Li Yunze was upset and even drunk. Fortunately, she was accompanied by a beautiful woman Beauty? Qu Weiwei, that''s a dummy! Fang Zihan gnawed his teeth angrily and felt that he was a media person. He was angry and collapsed by the media''s picture reading and talking. It was also an ox fork! Online news and messages swept the crowd squatting in front of the computer and reluctant to put down their mobile phones. But all this has nothing to do with he Yining at the moment. Why would you rather wash and sleep after eating the takeout ordered by Li Yunze. As for those things on the Internet, she doesn''t know at all. When she saw it the next day, because of Li Yunze''s preventive injection in advance, she didn''t make herself uncomfortable as Qu Weiwei expected. "Watching the news?" Li Yunze lay on the bed and asked with his eyes closed. "Well, I saw it this morning." Why rather turn the page, "you''re pregnant with a beauty now. Isn''t it appropriate to call me?" Li Yunze smiled, "why, not jealous at all?" "As you said, what you see may not be true." Why don''t you stop, "but if you really have something with Qu Weiwei, I''ll be very angry." "Oh?" Li Yunze slowly opened his eyes, "is it because of other women, or just Qu Weiwei?" "You can''t have any women, but especially Qu Weiwei." "Why?" Li Yunze''s eyes are slightly deep. Why would you rather open your mouth and swallow what you want to say? "Nothing, anyway... No." There was a little emotion in the pinching voice. Even across the wireless wave, Li Yunze still heard it. He Yining is a person with clear love and hate. If she likes you, she will show her dislike. Although she will hide it, she can always feel it. When I was a child, Yining had a good relationship with Qu Weiwei. Since Qu Weiwei and his class, the relationship between them seems to be getting worse and worse Just because of him?! Li Yunze''s eyes deepened a little, "remember to eat breakfast, huh?" "Yes." Why should I rather answer, "I don''t go out or watch the news these two days. I will focus on Grandpa Lin''s operation." "Yes." Li Yunze and he Yining chatted a few more words before hanging up. He lay in bed and didn''t move for a long time, but his head was running fast. The past events passed through my mind frame by frame like film, until they were fixed last night. When a person, everything is perfect in front of you and makes you traceless, it often makes people think deeply. How can someone behave so perfectly without any extreme emotion in front of another person? In this case, either the other party thinks you are air, or you are too thoughtful. Thinking, Li Yunze''s mobile phone rang. He picked up his eyes and called. It was mo Shaochen Chapter 1362 Li Yunze sat up and answered the phone, "Shaochen?" "Devon delayed the relationship, probably as you think." Mo Shaochen said calmly, "Xia Xiao has had a blood test. If you want to know the sex of the fetus, just find the hospital where the blood test is conducted." Li Yunze frowned slowly, and his sight was dark. Guessing is one thing, but when something is confirmed, it''s another. Mo Shaochen leaned against the window with one hand and his eyes fell out. He asked slowly, "if it is confirmed that Xia Xiao''s children are girls, but they have miscarried by themselves, trying to frame Yining, what should you do?" Li Yunze didn''t speak, but was silent. "Those who come out to fool around always have to pay back." Just a few words made Li Yunze''s position clear. Mo Shaochen''s mouth lightly raised a faint radian, "some people need to give some lessons." After a pause, he looked at the person who came in and motioned, "I have something here. I''ll meet and talk later." "OK." Li Yunze hung up the phone, called a flagship store and asked Qu Weiwei to call after sending a suit of clothes. "Where is it?" Li Yunze''s voice was a bit dry and dumb after drinking. "Just got to the studio," Qu Weiwei pushed open the door, "wake up?!" "Yes." Li Yunze asked, "last night..." "I wanted to take you home last night. I''m afraid it''s not very good, so I sent you to the hotel..." Qu Weiwei sighed, "but obviously, there''s still trouble." Li Yunze''s eyes were deep. "Didn''t it cause you anything?" "Me?" Qu Weiwei smiled, "I can hype my store, can''t I?!" "Well, I wish I didn''t." Li Yunze didn''t say anything more and hung up. However, at the moment when the phone was cut off, his eyes became deeper and deeper. ¡­¡­ Famous lawyers usually have resources in gray areas. Although most of the things obtained by these abnormal means cannot be used as evidence in court, sometimes they can play an unexpected role. It took only two days to get the blood test report and some relevant information. "Look at these things." Dai Wen handed the document bag to Li Yunze. Li Yunze took it, opened it, took out the information inside and looked at it indifferently "Let''s suppose..." Dai Wen said, "Cheng Guangying wants a son, but Xia Xiao is a daughter. For his position, he doesn''t let me feel" I know. " Li Yunze got up. "Lawyer Dai is in trouble with Yining''s case." Dai Wen smiled. "I''ll be idle when I come back. I''ll be the favor of Shaochen." Li Yunze nodded and turned to leave. On the way to devil "s kiss, Li Yunze went through the whole thing in his mind again. He boldly assumed that if Qu Weiwei suggested to Xia Xiao, then all this seems to make sense. If it''s really her, such a trick... He really underestimated it for so many years. In devil "s kiss, even during the day, there are groups of people spending their lives in famine. Li Yunze went upstairs and opened the door. Xiao Qiang was playing games while Xiao Yu and Xiao Heng were playing chess. "Li Shao." "You investigate two things for me..." While Li Yunze''s voice sounded, Jin shaosi was listening to Su ruomin''s report. "If these news is released, I''m afraid Cheng Guang venture capital will have a hard time recently." Su ruomin put down the folder. Jin shaosi gently shook the wine glass in his hand, and a cold smile overflowed from the corners of his mouth. "I don''t know what kind of lawyer can win this economic lawsuit for him?" Jin shaosi put down his red wine glass and got up indifferently. "When Lin Lao''s operation is over, put these on the media." "Huayu?" Su ruomin asked with certainty. Jin shaosi stopped, his eyes were slightly deep and nodded. Huaye''s boss is Li Yunze''s brother-in-law. If he releases it, it will be properly publicized. "I''ll get in touch with President Chen of Huaye." Su ruomin finished, turned around and left with confidence. Just as Jin shaosi turned and left the cellar, a figure shook slightly behind a wine cabinet. ¡­¡­ After Li Yunze told Xiao Qiang about their affairs, he drove to the general manager of the army and personally confirmed the operation tomorrow. It was already evening when he left. The mobile phone rang when Li Yunze just got on the bus. He took it out and saw why he Ning called. He smiled unconsciously at the corners of his mouth and put it in his ear. "Huh?" "You..." why Ning zhe asked with a smile, "can''t you come over at night?" "I don''t think I can make it." He Yining was a little lost, "Oh..." Li Yunze smiled, "go to bed early tonight. You have to cooperate with me tomorrow. There is probably no way to replace it." "Yes." Why would you rather answer, "then you can go to bed early after you''re busy." "OK." Why rather hung up the phone, curled his lips and sighed, bitterly went to the kitchen and steamed himself a bowl of eggs. "Ding Dong!" Just as he Yining had just finished steaming eggs and had no time to clean up the bowl, the doorbell suddenly rang. She walked over, suddenly saw the enlarged face from the cat''s eye, made a frightened ''ah'' sound, and then opened the door, "Li Yunze, you have to be scared... Huh!" He Yining''s words didn''t finish. The man had been pushed into the house by Li Yunze. While his lips were immediately blocked, Li Yunze''s feet were hooked and the door was closed The kiss is as sharp as a storm, but for a moment, why should I have difficulty breathing. Li Yunze let go of he Yining''s lips and pecked at the corners of her mouth. "You... Um... Can''t you tell?" "I guess..." Li Yunze''s lips have covered the softness through his thin clothes He Yining''s body was sensitive and said, "that''s not... It''s not the same..." Li Yunze got up, stared at he Yining, smiled and said, "I want to go to bed early with you... So I came here!" Words fall, Li Yunze is attached to the body, and he hugs the horizontal one. Why would he rather go inside "First take a bath together, and then... Go to bed!" Chapter 1363 "Hey..." he Yining suddenly stared, "you''re going to have a formal operation tomorrow. You have to stand for about ten hours. You''re still..." "What else?" Li Yunze kept walking, but his mouth was filled with a smile, and his sight was evil and ambiguous. Why Ning blushed slightly, "you''re not afraid to explain too much. Tomorrow... Can''t hold up!" "What explains too much?" Li Yunze asked as if he didn''t understand. Why Ning was stunned and immediately knew that Li Yunze was joking, "don''t know, forget it!" Li Yunze put he Yining down and suddenly opened the shower "Ah", why was ningdun getting wet? She stood under the shower angrily, looked at Li Yunze, who was full of time and smiled at her, and widened her eyes, "you did it on purpose!" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows, glanced up and down at the circle with a playful look in his eyes, and youyou said, "I haven''t told you... You''re wet first!" "..." why would you rather hang your head subconsciously. Because I''m just wearing home clothes. After getting wet at the moment, the clothes are posted on my body, outlining all the lines of her body "Li Yunze, you... Huh!" He Yining was too late to become angry. He was already butted against the wall by Li Yunze and his mouth was sealed Water vapor spread in the bathroom. Hazy, the obsessed men and women in the water to enjoy their enthusiasm, such harmony, as if to play the best movement of life. Li Yunze is not so happy that he can''t go here. He needs a lot of physical strength for tomorrow''s operation. Indeed, he can''t play with children. After one time, Li Yunze and he Yining cleaned themselves up one after another. After drying their hair, they nestled on the small double bed of he Yining, hugged together and prepared to go to sleep. "Why don''t I go to the small bedroom to sleep," he Yining said softly. "If you don''t sleep well at night..." "No." Li Yunze closed his eyes. "I like to sleep with you. It''s soft. It feels like holding a high pillow." He Yining was stunned at first, then hummed in his nose, "I''m not fat yet..." Li Yunze smiled and rubbed his forehead. "It''s a little meat comfortable, but if you want to feel beautiful, I''ll give you a nutritional meal list." Why Ning zhe smiled and was spoiled by Li Yunze. She was so happy that she couldn''t bear to sleep. I''m really afraid that when I wake up, everything turned out to be just a dream. "Good night, Li Yunze!" He Yining said softly. Li Yunze''s smile deepened a little, "silly Ning, good night!" He Yining listened to the new title and was not angry at all. Instead, he was happier. She closed her eyes and rubbed into Li Yunze''s arms, looking for a more comfortable posture She likes to call him "Li Yunze", because even his first name and last name are memories from childhood to adulthood. Time, a little bit past, usually there is no time to sleep, but ten minutes, both entered the dream. A person''s bed is lonely, often accompanied by only your mobile phone, overdraft your life, consume your eyesight, and finally get only more loneliness. The bed for two is warm. Hug each other and sleep, sweet sleep Before going to bed, say ''good night'' to each other. When the first ray of sunshine falls on the earth in the morning, they look at each other, smile and say ''good morning''. That is the simplest happiness, but it is also the most difficult to achieve. ¡­¡­ Song Tianye is on duty at night and looks through some information about Lin''s operation on the Internet. The video of tomorrow''s operation will not flow out, but it may be used in internal communication. Naturally, we can learn a lot in advance. Thinking, song Tianye gets up and makes himself a cup of instant coffee. Leaning against the window, he looked at the night light in the hospital yard and looked slightly deeper The matter of Yining is now making a lot of noise. Li Yunze''s attitude is not obvious. Do you believe in Yining or not? At school, he was also a person led by Li Yunze. It was clear that if he really believed that Yining was a medical accident, he would not leave Yining because of Lin''s persistence. If you don''t believe it, why not? Song Tianye droops his eyes and drinks a cup of coffee. He is a little worried about why he would rather have an accident because of his psychological burden tomorrow Although, Yining and Li Yunze cooperated well in the previous academic exchange meeting. But nothing can stand, just in case "Oh, I hope nothing happens." Song Tianye sighs, turns around and continues to see the medical record. At the moment, song Tianye''s worry is also that of many people, but no one asks why. This is the same as before your college entrance examination, if everyone is asking you ''no problem''?! You will be out of order because of tension or stress The care of friends is in my heart. The onlookers who have nothing to do with themselves are not afraid of big things. They are discussing on the Internet one by one. Coupled with the news that is unfavorable to why Yining this week, the online posts and replies gradually become intriguing, as if they were manipulated by public opinion. "What are you looking at?" Li Jinxi heated the milk and came out. He saw Chen Yu holding the computer and didn''t know what he was looking at. "Chen''s new trend films have been released recently." He got up and hugged Li Jinxi, who leaned slightly against the balcony. "You''re busy with the global performance tour these days. You''re just a little tired. Aren''t you going to comfort me?" "Yes, I''m so busy that I don''t have time to watch the scandal between you and your little star." Li Jinxi rolled his eyes and then asked, "by the way, I didn''t bother to ask about Yunze''s operation tomorrow." "What can I ask?" Chen Yu smiled, "what are you worried about that he doesn''t worry about?" "It''s also......" Li Jinxi curled his mouth and chatted with Chen Yu while drinking milk. "Oh, think about it. If the eldest brother is still there, we will join hands with Yunze tomorrow. We don''t need any operation team at all..." Li Jinxi suddenly thought of Li Yunhao, and there was a clear flash of sadness in his eyes. Chen Yu''s expression changed slightly. Fortunately, Li Jinxi didn''t see it. "What a pity..." Li Jinxi''s nose was sour. Even though it has been so many years, Li Jinxi can''t let go every time he thinks of the medical genius of the Li family who is even better than Yunze. If it is a normal death, she may be sad, but she won''t have so many regrets in her heart. But now, such death and tragedy make her unable to face the picture every time she thinks of it. "Chen Yu," Li Jinxi looked up at Chen Yu, "in fact, I don''t like your surname..." Chapter 1364 Chen Yu''s heart suddenly "clattered". He looked at Li Jinxi and pulled the corners of his mouth, "the surname Chen is very common. Why did he annoy you?" He said so, but he knew why. Some things, as if they don''t know, don''t exist Li Jinxi opened his mouth, but swallowed what he was going to say before he said it. "Forget it, I''m just too tired and nervous." Li Jinxi drank up the milk and gave the empty cup to Chen Yu. Chen Yu took over, "wash and sleep." "Will you let me sleep?" Li Jinxi raised her eyebrows. Chen Yu smiled vaguely, "I don''t want to... But aren''t you tired?" As he spoke, he had put his arms around Li Jinxi''s waist and stuck her to himself. "You see, I''m ready to move because of you!" Chen Yu speaks obscene words with a pitiful appearance, but it doesn''t make people feel annoying, but it feels like an emotional tone. Across the clothes, Li Jinxi can feel Chen Yu''s reaction Li Jinxi and Chen Yu are together, that is, the two evil interests match together, and then collide with the most direct spark. But today''s Li Jinxi is somewhat different. At least, in Chen Yu''s eyes, it is a tormenting goblin She grabbed Chen Yu, then deliberately rubbed her body and felt the heat. Because she was emotional, when Chen Yu could hardly stand such torture, she suddenly pushed away "I''m so tired. I''m going to bed!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Chen Yu twitched at the corners of his mouth, gritted his teeth and said, "Li Jinxi, after you ignited the fire, you left like this. Is it kind?" Li Jinxi turned back and smiled, "I''ve never been kind..." She said that she had entered the bathroom and was ready to wash, leaving Chen Yu alone outside with a bitter face. "Forget it, for you are too tired these days, let you go..." Chen Yu is not very interested at the moment. All he thinks about is the leader of the Li family mentioned by Li Jinxi before. A layer of worry gradually enveloped his face. Can some things be concealed all the time, or Chen Yu sighed and looked back at the direction of the bathroom. His eyes were stained with helplessness caused by worry. Li Jinxi didn''t know what Chen Yu was thinking at the moment. She just gently touched her lower abdomen and sighed, "little guy, now my mother should start hiding you well, otherwise, they won''t agree with my mother to keep you." Li Jinxi looked up and looked at himself in the mirror. There was a touch of urgent hope at the bottom of his eyes She may... Be able to give birth to this little guy! ¡­¡­ The next day, not surprisingly, the morning news was occupied by Lin Lao''s operation. Outside the general military hospital, the media had been squatting early, but they didn''t dare to get too close. Li Yunze drove. Why would he rather sit in the back seat and directly enter the general manager of the army on the premise that she would not be seen outside. The operation is scheduled to start at 9:10, and the preliminary preparations are ready. After a simple preoperative meeting, Li Yunze and others got up and walked to the operating room. He Yining was still ignored. He looked at her one by one, just like looking at a mouse excrement Why don''t you care about it? Anyway, her purpose is to cooperate with Li Yunze to complete grandpa Lin''s operation. Disinfection, wearing surgical clothes, anesthesiologist anesthesia Everything is going on in an orderly manner. Li Yunze looked at the crowd and said calmly, "the operation to be done today is..." Although all the contents of the operation are known to everyone, as the main knife, I still said it seriously and reminded the possible changes in the operation. "Now!" Li Yunze felt his hand, "scalpel..." In the operating room, the atmosphere gradually became a little dignified because of the progress of the operation. Li Yunze listened to the report of the personnel in charge of the instrument while performing the operation quickly to judge the progress of the operation and various situations. Outside, concerned about the matter and why Ning incident, they speculated about the operation one after another, and even some remarks of people with three wrong views caused a siege by many people. Such a world has nothing to do with the people in the operating room at the moment. Five hours later, the operation completely entered the most difficult period "Next, I''ll speed up." Li Yunze looked at he Yining and asked, "is there a problem?" He Yining raised his mouth slightly under the mask, and his eyes were completely confident, "no!" "Very good!" Li Yunze took back his sight, and his subordinates kept explaining the scope he needed to carry out with the second master knife. The operation entered a difficult period, and everyone mentioned his voice. Everyone knows that from this moment on, it is not only a competition for time, but also a period of high incidence of accidents However, except for Li Yunze, everyone here soon experienced the first "accident"! Li Yunze doesn''t need to say anything, or even raise his hand. He Yining can know what he needs, and what does her deputy need to deal with?! No doubt, everyone here knows how much time will be saved without waiting. Professor Wang looked at he Yining in surprise. After doubts flashed from the bottom of his eyes, he was full of appreciation. No matter whether the previous medical accident is true or not, he Yining at the moment is the person li Yunze must stay in the operation team! An operation was completed half an hour earlier than expected under the tension and high concentration of the people. This was something that everyone dared not think of except Li Yunze. Although the credit should be attributed to Li Yunze''s control of the operation progress and skilled skills, everyone also knows that without the cooperation of he Yining, it is impossible to achieve such catch-up time! "Third Deputy stitching!" Li Yunze''s words fell, and his eyes looked at why he Ning. The moment they looked at each other in the air, they smiled at each other It''s a kind of warmth with your heart in touch, a beauty with your company and support in your work. "Dr. he, I''m impressed by today''s operation." Professor Wang appreciated, "you shouldn''t be in obstetrics and gynecology." A pun, why would you rather just smile. "Personal hobbies have nothing to do with ability." Why rather speak slowly, "in addition, I am worthy of my heart." Professor Wang stared deeply at he Yining, who was a pair of clear eyes that could see to the end, full of seriousness under self-confidence. Such a vision of he Yining, will you really prescribe the wrong medicine, resulting in abortion? "Dr. he..." the nurse of the general manager of the army came over. She looked at the people around her. Her sight crossed Li Yunze who had just washed his hands. Then she said in a strange voice, "people from the medical supervision department came to see you." Chapter 1365 "Medical supervision department?!" Why Ning frowned? She was very tired at the moment because she continued to follow Li Yunze''s high-intensity concentration behind her. She can''t figure it out. It''s already seven o''clock. What are the people in the medical supervision department looking for her? Subconsciously, he Yining looked back at Li Yunze. Li Yunze didn''t speak and looked at her faintly, which made people can''t see what he was thinking at the moment. He Yining took back his sight, nodded with the nurse and followed the nurse to see the people in the medical supervision department. "Li Shao?" Professor Wang looked at Li Yunze after he Yining left, "this..." Li Yunze came forward indifferently, "I insisted that she stay in the operation team, just because she can best cooperate with the operation." He looked at Professor Wang. "It doesn''t represent any other position." Professor Wang was stunned. Obviously, he couldn''t respond to Li Yunze''s attitude. "I''ll have a rest first." Li Yunze said and went to the staff dormitory in the backyard of the general army. Lin has just finished his operation today. There may be some changes in the evening. He can''t leave too far. The hospital has set up a single room for him to rest temporarily. As soon as Li Yunze came out of the building, he saw why he would rather not know what he was talking to the people in the medical supervision department Under the light, why Ning''s firm face didn''t touch his mood because of the sharp words of the medical supervision personnel. "It''s no use believing in myself. However, the court will be held next week. Whether it''s my fault, I prefer to believe in the law." He Yining said, "I''ve already said what I should say and what you should know. I''ve just had an operation and I''m really tired." "Dr. he, although we are willing to believe you, we can..." "As I said, I won''t explain any more. Leave the rest to the law." He Yining''s eyes are firm, "or do you think the law is not fair?" A rhetorical question made the medical supervisor speechless. "Is there anything else?" He Yining asked, "if not, can I leave first?" "Dr. he, we just want to know about the situation..." the medical supervisor said, "after all, there is great public opinion now, and we can''t keep doing nothing." "I understand, so I answered all your questions, but you can''t let me admit what I haven''t done because you want to do something..." he Yining said a little tired. "I''ve been in the operating room for ten hours and haven''t had a bite of food. I understand that you''re waiting for me so late. Should you also understand me?" Seeing that they didn''t know the important information, the medical supervisor had to nod. "Thank you!" He Yining said that and turned to leave. Yu Guang glanced at Li Yunze, and she looked sideways Due to the problem of light, he Yining can''t see Li Yunze very clearly. He can only roughly see his outline. I don''t know why, she felt a trace of indifference at this moment. Slightly frowned, why rather the bottom of the eye crossed a touch of doubt. As if, from the moment he just came out to this moment, he had been to her He Yining took back his sight, because he was thinking about things in his heart and looked puzzled. Obviously, the whole person felt a little discouraged. The medical supervisor looked at he Yining and Li Yunze, and thought about what he had learned. At the moment when he Yining turned around, Li Yunze also turned and lifted his feet to the direction of the dormitory building However, just now the cold breath, in the back over the body at the moment, gradually removed, replaced by a trace of worry. Yining I may be starting to hurt you. Li Yunze sighed and walked slowly with his hands copying his pockets, step by step, a little heavy. ¡­¡­ He Yining was very smart this time. Instead of going out directly, she saw a hospital car going out and asked her help to take it out. She was lying on the window. Sure enough, she saw a "sneaky" reporter nearby and kept looking at the door. I suffered a loss last time. Can I let you catch it again?! He Yining took back his sight, put aside the corners of his mouth, took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to Li Yunze: I''m not surrounded by reporters today. How smart? Li Yunze looked at the information and put a soft smile on the corners of his mouth: Well, silly Ning has become smarter. Li Yunze looked at the words he typed, and his eyes gradually deepened. Finally, he deleted the typed SMS word by word Look up and fall in front. The people in the hospital canteen knew that their operation was completed and the food prepared for him was sent to the dormitory. Li Yunze sighed, holding his mobile phone in his hand, wanted to order a takeout for he Yining, but finally, he gave up. Step up and move on. "Li Shao," with a dime on one shoulder, looked at the girl of up to twenty-four or five years old, "I''m Fang Xiran." "It doesn''t need a captain to deliver a meal to the hospital?" Li Yunze spoke faintly. Fang Xiran had a strong breath of soldiers, and he was able to pick his eyebrows with pride. "Old Lin''s surgery is very concerned by the military, and I thank Li Shao very much." "Personal friendship has nothing to do with the military." Li Yunze still looked light, "a little tired, excuse me." Without waiting for Fang Xiran to say anything, Li Yunze has stepped to the dormitory area Fang Xiran moved back and forth in the corners of his mouth, and finally swallowed his words back. He just looked at Li Yunze''s indifferent and alienated figure, with a smile across his eyes. "Dad was right," Fang Xi ran frowned. "It''s very appetizing to me." "Chief, Li Shao is good." At the right time, the person who sent the food said, "but I heard something happened." Fang Xiran looked at the man, "is that Qu Weiwei?" She sneered, "Li Yunze must not like such a woman." She turned, "I''ll go and see old Lin." The delivery man shrugged, shook his head, pushed the delivery car and turned away, muttering, "Qu Weiwei Li doesn''t know if she doesn''t look at it, but it''s also a good story if head Fang and the Li family get married." Li Yunze was not in the mood to pay attention to other people''s thoughts. In other words, no one who has entered his heart has never really understood anything except face communication. For example, he Yining didn''t see her good. For example, Qu Weiwei didn''t know her Yin Li Yunze drank a bowl of soup, took his mobile phone and dialed Jin shaosi. He was a little depressed. There is an excellent rival in love around, and now we still need to use him. Li Yunze said, it''s not cool! "What?" As soon as the phone was connected, Jin shaosi''s indifferent voice came. "Yining left the hospital and hasn''t eaten yet." Li Yunze looked at the food on his table and said, "it''s likely that she went back to bed directly." After a tired day, he doesn''t reply to her text message. His silly Ning is afraid to think about something. "Are you giving me a chance?" Jin shaosi asked with his eyes slightly deep. Chapter 1366 Li Yunze immediately shrouded his face with a layer of haze. His face was dark, but his tone was very proud and said, "give you a chance, can you have a chance?" Jin shaosi frowned slightly, and his indifferent face was vaguely angry because of Li Yunze''s words. Yes, he has many opportunities! But the only thing missing is the opportunity to ''have'' "Li Yunze, people''s hearts are very precise, not only in nerves, but also in spirit..." Jin shaosi sneered and turned away. "You''re a doctor. I''m afraid I don''t need to elaborate?" What do people fear most? Get and lose! If you don''t get it all the time, it''s an obsession. But if you get it and find that everything is false, it is often double the pain and easy to give up completely. This is the weakness of human nature. No matter how strong people are, they all have this side. Of course, Li Yunze is not afraid, but he is afraid, which is better than some things that have happened all the time. Moreover, he believes in Yining''s feelings for him Well, although there are some elements of self comfort in it. "As long as you don''t take advantage of the danger of others and take advantage of the weakness... It''s good." Li Yunze spoke slowly. Li Yunze seemed to feel the tug of war with Jin shaosi. After eating something casually, Li Yunze washed and went to bed. He now has to deal not only with what he suspects, but also with the research of silence. The most important thing is Li Yunze sighed heavily, and his heart ached. "One by one, I''m sorry..." Li Yunze slowly opened his eyes and looked at the roof. His eyes were slightly red. When sending one by one to Spencer, he told one by one that he would pick her up with Yining on Saturday, but now Li Yunze''s eyes were dark, some terrible, and even some dark anger. If he determines what is unhappy, he will get it all back! The mobile phone vibrated at the right time. Li Yunze restrained his mind, picked it up and opened it. Why did it come from Ning. Silly Ning: Li Yunze, shall I pick up one by one tomorrow? You have to observe grandpa Lin''s situation tonight. I don''t want you to work so hard. I''ll explain one by one and understand you one by one! Li Yunze just looked at he Yining''s text message, and his nose was slightly sour. If Li Yunze did anything he regretted in his life, it was that he didn''t treat a girl called "he Yining" well at his best age. He Yining still didn''t receive Li Yunze''s reply. She took a deep breath and whispered, "forget it, you''re so tired. I''m afraid you''ll fall asleep!" Put down your mobile phone, why would you rather knead your sore shoulder and plan to make a cup of milk tea, wash and sleep. I''m too tired to cook at all "Ding Dong!" Why was Ning stunned and said, "it won''t be the takeout ordered by Li Yunze again?" She thought, the pace of opening the door became relaxed, and she opened the door without even looking at who it was. "Yes..." he Yining just opened his mouth and was stunned when he saw Jin shaosi at the door, "ah Si?!" Jin shaosi obviously saw the flash of loss from the bottom of he Yining''s eyes. He was a little sad in his heart, but he covered it up very well. "I happened to pass by, so I''ll come up and have a look." Why would you rather let Jin shaosi in and listen to him say: "just now the news said that old Lin''s operation was very successful. As long as there is no repetition tonight, it''s basically OK." "Yes." He Yining''s eyes lit up. Every time she saw Li Yunze in the operating room, she became more fascinated with him That kind of arrogance in his field almost hit her chest with a pair of small fists. I wish I could take out my heart and show him his name written on her heart. Jin shaosi looked back at he Yining who was still standing at the door. The light projected from the corridor fell on her face, emitting a dreamy light. Jin shaosi''s vision gradually became deeper and deeper, and there was a touch of self mockery at the bottom of his eyes. Why is Li Yunze so confident? How can such Yining not give him confidence? Li Yunze is not only he Yining''s persistence, but also her life... Isn''t it?! When he felt his eyes, why should Ning suddenly return to his mind? When he saw Jin shaosi looking at her, his face immediately flushed slightly, "I, you..." "I haven''t eaten yet," Jin shaosi couldn''t bear to be embarrassed. "Have you eaten?" He Yining shook his head, "I''m too tired after the operation, so I don''t have any appetite..." "I knew it." Jin shaosi sighed, "I''ll cook and you have a rest." "You''re busy, too. Shall we order takeout?" "Make yourself delicious. You''re too tired to have any appetite. I''ll make something light." Jin shaosi took off his suit and went to the kitchen. He Yining sighed softly. He didn''t know what to do with such a Jin shaosi. After a while, there was a loud sound in the kitchen. He Yining turned to freshen up and went out to get his mobile phone. Seeing that Li Yunze had not replied, he was more determined that he had fallen asleep. Looking at the direction of the kitchen, he Yining sent a text message to Li Yunze: ah Si came and saw me not eating and cooking... Li Yunze, you didn''t order takeout for me. In fact, I was a little lost. However, seeing that you are so tired, I forgive you! Looking at the text messages sent out, why do you smile at the corners of your mouth There was a movement from the kitchen door. He Yining sent his mobile phone and looked back. He saw that Jin shaosi came out with two plates of cold dishes. "Noodles in soup will be ready soon." "Yes." He Yining walked over and said, "ace, how happy would it be for you to be the president and get into the kitchen and marry your girl in the future?" "Many things, do not do, because who is the other side?" Jin shaosi spoke faintly and still didn''t hide his love. He Yining secretly grinned and feigned himself. It''s really a pot that doesn''t open. "Yining..." "Huh?" Jin shaosi stirred the noodles in the pot. "If Li Yunze hurt you again, what would you do?" In his low voice, there was a touch of unspeakable complexity. Was it sadness under forbearance or helplessness under expectation, as if... Even Jin shaosi himself was unwilling to face it up. He Yining looked at Jin shaosi and thought of her strange thoughts and her short message when she separated from Li Yunze in the evening. Li Yunze had not replied. He frowned slightly, "ah Si, why do you ask?" "I just want to know that you love him so much. If he hurts you or deceives you..." Jin shaosi looked at he Yining. "What would you do?" Jin shaosi looked at he Yining and his eyes became deep, "you answer me seriously!" Chapter 1367 Why should I rather look at Jin shaosi quietly? I have a kind of hairy feeling in my heart. That feeling is a woman''s natural sixth sense. It seems that something is going to happen, but I can''t guess. The voice of "Yiyi" came. Before Jin shaosi could wait for he Yining to speak, the noodles in the pot had begun to prepare a dissatisfied overflow pot, as if protesting that they ignored it. Jin shaosi returned to his senses, stirred the following, looked familiar and turned off the fire. He took out a bowl, quickly fished for noodles and scooped up soup. He Yining still didn''t answer. Jin shaosi didn''t seem to be so attached to the answer. He said faintly, "go out to dinner first!" He Yining made a soft ''um'' sound and turned to the table. Two people''s dinner table, because of the previous topic, the obvious atmosphere is somewhat stiff and awkward. Mr. Jin did not, as in the past, turn aside the topic in order to make him feel uncomfortable. It seemed that he wanted to know why he had a peaceful attitude after this happened. Or, he wants to tell himself that maybe... He still has a little chance. Who is not selfish? He helped Li Yunze, but he wanted to make Yining happy. The most important thing is that he didn''t want Yining to get hurt. It doesn''t mean that he will bless Yining and Li Yunze, it doesn''t mean... He doesn''t want Yining. In the quiet space, there is only the sound of gently sucking noodles. In this atmosphere, the sound of "sizzling" is really strange. "Ace..." He Yining looked up as if he finally wanted to understand. Looking at the sight of Jin shaosi, he calmly said: "Li Yunze will not hurt me or deceive me!" Jin shaosi twisted his eyebrows and suddenly said coldly, "do you believe him so?" "Yes!" He Yining''s voice is still very calm, but it can be seen that she is very firm. "Yining, he didn''t hurt you less..." Jin shaosi told the truth. "That was before." Why Ning zhe said, "at that time, he didn''t like me, but hated me. Naturally, he would hurt me because of his dislike." "Are you sure he loves you now?" Jin shaosi''s voice was a little colder. He Yining nodded and shook his head. "I admit that I am not confident in Li Yunze because I have done too many things before and haven''t caught up with him... But I have a heart." He Yining said here, his eyes filled with a comfortable light, "I can feel that he has me in his heart now." Jin shaosi looked at he Yining quietly. There was no emotion on the surface of his line of sight, but a layer of spray had gradually sprung up in the depths of his eyes. "So he won''t hurt me or cheat me..." he Yining said with a smile, "I won''t doubt him, because sometimes what my eyes see is not necessarily the truth, let alone hear?" Mr. Jin remained silent. "Ace, I''ve suffered a lot..." he Yining laughed with self mockery. "What I''ve been seen is false, but I can''t refute... Since I''ve experienced it myself, why don''t I trust the person I love?" Jin shaosi''s eyes gradually dimmed. This is his persistence in his heart from small to large, just like Li Yunze for Yining. He Yining, who recognizes the reason of death, is a woman he loves and can only look at and can''t get in his life? "So, I can answer the question you just asked me..." Why Ning smiled shallowly, knowing that it would hurt Jin shaosi, but she still had to tell him clearly and seriously what she thought. "Li Yunze ''hurt'' me, I let him ''hurt..." he Yining''s eyes were firm, "Li Yunze'' deceived ''me, I let him'' deceive ''!" Jin shaosi''s face gradually opened up. It was a kind of powerless decadence "If this is what Li Yunze wants, I will cooperate with him!" He Ning said quietly, "although, I don''t know why!" Jin linning looked at him with a little surprise. Why Ning shrugged and continued to eat noodles, "in fact, I don''t want to face it, but anyway..." she stopped and looked up at Jin shaosi, "ah Si, I love him. This is something I won''t give up in my life." The position of Jin shaosi''s heart seemed to be cut out with a knife. The dull pain made him feel how desolate he was Li Yunze, how can you get such love from Yining? Don''t let you down a bit, or... I don''t mind taking advantage of it. ¡­¡­ The night filled Los Angeles. The success of Lin''s operation made everyone more confident in Li Yunze''s ability. Naturally, they also expressed their sharp views on why Ning was questioned by people from the medical supervision bureau. One by one, lying on the table in the music classroom, listening to Jian Jie playing the piano, his black eyes fell out of the window, his small mouth raised and deflated for a while, as if he had something on his mind. The sound of the piano suddenly stopped. Jian Jie went to one by one, looked outside first and then one by one. His small eyebrows wrinkled slightly and sat down on one side. "What are you looking at?" Jane Jie asked curiously. One by one, he smiled and said, "I didn''t see anything." "So, what are you thinking?" On the face of Jian Jie''s miniature Gu Beichen, there is a pair of absolutely right self-confidence. One by one turned his head, still lying on his stomach, and asked Jian Jie, "I''m wondering if that uncle will come when my mother comes to pick me up tomorrow..." "Don''t you dislike that uncle?" Jane Jay skimmed his lips. Who is that uncle? He didn''t say one by one. He just kept shouting ''that uncle'', and Jane Jie followed him. One by one tooted his mouth, "so I don''t know why. It''s clear that I prefer uncle Si, but suddenly I''m looking forward to tomorrow. I hope that uncle will pick me up with his mother." "It''s probably because that uncle likes aunt Yining, so you can accept it?" Jane Jie said so. One by one, she didn''t understand. She frowned and wrinkled her nose. After thinking for a while, she realized what Jane Jie meant. "But Uncle Si likes his mother too!" "Who does aunt Yining like?" One by one was stunned and sat up. "It seems to be that uncle." "That''s it, so you''ll tend to that Uncle..." Jian Jie looked at the time. "It''s time to go back to the dormitory. Wait for your housekeeper aunt and come to you again." "You take me back!" One by one. Jane Jie sighed and got up, "let''s go!" One by one immediately laughed, followed Jane Jie and walked to the dormitory "Xiao Jie, haven''t you been home lately?" Asked one by one. "Yes." Jane Jie answered softly, with sadness on her small face. Daddy said, let him believe him, he believes But did Mommy really not leave them? Can Mommy come back? Chapter 1368 The next day, he Yining got up early. She took her cell phone and looked at it. Li Yunze didn''t reply to her text message all night. She said she was not lost. She couldn''t even deceive herself. I don''t know why, because with Li Yunze''s previous words and Jin shaosi''s questions last night, why is Ning not as sad as he imagined. Get up, wash and take the bus to Spencer. He Yining watched one by one and came over. He didn''t see her for a week. The little girl obviously changed. In the end, noble schools will teach in all aspects of etiquette. Looking around one by one, when she saw that there was only he Yining, the little girl was a little lost in her eyes. liar! I also said I would pick me up with my mother, but in the end, my mother didn''t come alone. "Mom..." after calling out one by one, he waved his hand to the teacher, "goodbye, teacher." He Ning smiled and rubbed 11''s head. He told the teacher that he would send them to the party tomorrow before he left the school with 11. "Let''s go to the supermarket later," he Yining said. "Mom learned a great steamed egg. You must like it." "Did you learn from Uncle Si?" Asked one by one. "No," he Yining said with a smile, "it''s the uncle..." "Oh..." one by one angrily turned his mouth. Why rather holding one by one''s hand, "uncle was supposed to come and pick you up with his mother, but you also know that his mother had an operation with him yesterday. He needs to observe grandpa Lin''s postoperative situation and can''t get away." One by one, he opened his mouth. "Did grandpa Lin''s operation succeed?" "It''s necessary. I don''t want to see who''s in charge!" When he Yining talked about Li Yunze, his eyes would be filled with laughter involuntarily. One by one, she looked up at her little head and thought of what Jane Jie said last night. She expected the uncle because her mother liked the uncle. But One by one, he took back his sight and tooted his small mouth. He Yining always explained to Li Yunze why she couldn''t come. She also understood that it was because of responsibility. However, she was still feeling a little lost. ¡­¡­ After Li Yunze personally checked the postoperative situation for old Lin, he turned and smiled and said to Professor Wang and others: "it''s no big problem." Professor Wang and others smiled at each other and breathed out one by one. "Report to chief one." Professor Wang said. Li Yunze nodded and looked at the time. It was almost noon. He took out his cell phone. Sure enough, there was a text message from he Yining: I answered one by one. The little girl was obviously a little unhappy because you didn''t pick her up. Article 2: Li Yunze, are you happy? The daughter is her own, so even if she doesn''t like it on the surface, she is still close to you in her heart! Li Yunze''s mouth gradually overflowed with a comfortable smile, which was slowly replaced by complex emotions. "I have something to go first..." After Li Yunze explained to everyone, he left the general manager of the army and went back to Huakang. Sunny weekends, which should have been a beautiful day, will always become bad because of some thoughtful people. Cheng Guangying gradually frowned as he listened to the people below reporting on the company''s situation these two days. "President Cheng, the problem now is that if the discipline inspection department and finance come to check, I''m afraid..." "Do I need you to say?" Cheng Guangying coldly interrupted the man''s words, and then clenched his teeth and said, "find a way to make these things flat for me." "But..." With a bang, Cheng Guangying directly smashed all the files in his hand on the face, "but what? Ah? Don''t you know? If some things are found out, I''m not the one who''s unlucky. Do you think you can escape?" The man bit his teeth. "I see." Cheng Guangying spit and scold, "shit, if I know who stabbed him in the back, press him to death!" Suddenly, Cheng Guangying flashed something in his mind and suddenly widened his eyes. "Can''t it be Jin shaosi?" Cheng Guangying whispered and hurriedly turned on the computer. Sure enough, the matter of why Ning is still fermenting. The court has issued a summons to hold a court session on he Yining''s medical accident next Tuesday. Cheng Guangying bit his teeth, thought of his son he didn''t get, and thought about the company now. After narrowing his eyes and scolding, he called lawyer Cao first. "Lawyer Cao, just tell me, what are the chances of winning this time?" Lawyer Cao sighed, "in terms of evidence, we will win, but..." "But what?" Cheng Guangying asked again, unable to suppress his anger. "In terms of technical means, Dai Wen''s side..." Lawyer Cao gritted his teeth and said he couldn''t. It was not easy, but it was true that he had little chance of winning against Dai Wen. That is a person who can turn the tide and win the lawsuit without evidence. He is completely equivalent to Mo Shaochen in the criminal and defense circles. Cheng Guangying was so angry that he hung up the phone directly. After taking deep breaths for several times, he calmed down his anger slightly and called Jin shaosi When Jin shaosi received the call, he was holding a video conference. He looked at the call and said, "pause for five minutes." He cut off the video and picked up his cell phone. "President Jin, I''m Cheng Guangying..." Cheng Guangying asked with a grin. "So, are you free for dinner tonight?" "Tonight..." Jin shaosi''s eyes gradually deepened, as if he had meditated before slowly saying, "OK." Hearing this, Cheng Guangying immediately brightened his eyes. "I''ll see you at Wangjiang tower that night." "Does Mr. Chen mind if I bring a woman?" Jin shaosi spoke slowly. Hearing this, Cheng Guangying hurriedly said, "don''t mind, don''t mind... How can you mind? Men drink and have fun with a woman around them!" "Yes." Jin shaosi answered faintly and hung up after Cheng Guangying said "don''t bother you first". The corners of his mouth gradually overflowed with a sneer. Jin shaosi sent a text message to Li Yunze: Cheng Guangying took the bait and should make progress in the evening. Li Yunze''s eyes narrowed slightly, and a cold evil smile was put on the corners of his mouth. Some things don''t need to be so troublesome, but just give Yining to confirm that she hasn''t had a medical accident. How can she do? Since you like to play tricks, then... Let''s play together. Even if there is no progress at night, he will make things progress! Li Yunze replied: Cheng Guangying will think you take Yining. In order not to cause conflict, he will never take Xia Xiao. Then, he will take a woman close to him. Jin shaosi naturally knows this. As long as you bring a close woman, things will be easy to do Whether Xia Xiao''s son is the first to try the blood test or the result is unexpected! Li Yunze put down his mobile phone and looked out If you add discomfort to Yining, I will pay you back even more! Chapter 1369 At night, Wangjiang tower. With a woman, Jin shaosi entered Wangjiang building without too much taboo. Under the guidance of the waiter, he went to the viewing box on the top floor. In the box, Cheng Guangying has arrived. Sure enough, he didn''t bring Xia Xiao. Cheng Guangying was surprised that the person Jin shaosi took was not he Yining. However, after a flash of surprise, he enthusiastically let the two people into their seats. During the dinner, Cheng Guangying was basically talking about Jin''s group''s investment in Cheng Guang venture capital. He didn''t mention anything about he Yining. However, we are all smart people. How could Jin shaosi fail to recognize Cheng Guangying''s meaning from his occasional words? Last time we met, it was obvious that Cheng Guangying was determined to sue Yining, but this time Jin shaosi picked up his glass and took a sip. His eyes suddenly fell on Cheng Guangying''s woman, "have a drink together?" "Tian Tian, have a drink with president Jin..." Cheng Guangying winked at Tian Tian immediately. Tian Tian looked at Cheng Guangying and Jin shaosi with a look on her face. "Well... President Jin, I''m not good at drinking. Can I use juice instead?" Jin shaosi listened, but his eyes narrowed slightly. It was obvious that his smile was cold and indifferent. Cheng Guangying felt Jin shaosi''s dissatisfaction and immediately looked at Tian Tian with a sinking face. "If Jin always let you drink, you can drink it. Can you die with a glass of wine?" Then he hurried to make color with Tian Tian. Tian Tian bit his lip, looked at the Baijiu liquor in front of him, and looked at Jin Shaosi. His eyes were all red. Jin shaosi simply didn''t go to see Tian Tian, but slowly opened his mouth to his girlfriend: "you drink with me..." "OK." The companion smiled and listened, and the Baijiu he had touched the bottom with Jin Shao Si. Now, Cheng Guangying''s face couldn''t hang up completely. Tian Tian is a woman who has been with him for a long time. It can be said that she is also the one who wins his heart most. She is absolutely exquisite in all aspects when she takes her out on weekdays. Today, she even falls off her chain at a critical time. Tian Tian bit her lips, and her men consciously touched her belly. On previous occasions, most of the time, she had to curry favor with Cheng Guangying. Naturally, she could hide without drinking, but today Now the child can''t be detected as a boy. She can''t let Cheng Guangying know. Otherwise, it''s likely that she will have to have a forced abortion. But drinking is bad for children Tian Tian took a hand, looked at the glass of Baijiu in front of him, and said, "Jin Zong, it''s not that I don''t drink. It''s because I''m not very well. Can you forgive me?" "Oh?" Jin shaosi raised his eyebrows. "Miss Tian is not in good health, so naturally she can''t drink..." paused. "You have to be willing to drink before you can have fun. President Cheng, you say... Right?" "Yes, yes, yes!" Cheng Guangying could only accompany his smiling face, hurriedly picked up his cup and drank a cup of apology. While Cheng Guangying was drinking, Jin shaosi sent a text message: I''m afraid some plays don''t need to be performed. Li Yunze suddenly smiled, "it seems that Cheng Guangying is the first, and it may really be his son!" Then he called Xiao Qiang directly. "Li Shao?" Xiao Qiang held his mobile phone, threw out the card in his hand and motioned Xiao Yu and Xiao Heng to give money, "aren''t the internal data of Chengguang venture capital enough?" "Find a way, cut a cell phone number and send a text message to Xia Xiao," Li Yunze said. "Tell her that Cheng Guangying is in Wangjiang building with a woman who is still pregnant." "Tut Tut," Xiao Qiang got up with his mobile phone and went to the computer. "Are you going to let the main room tear the little three, or let the little three anger the main room?" Li Yunze sneered, "I want to make them uneasy." Not only Cheng Guang, but also Xia Xiao! ¡­¡­ He Yining was afraid that the online news would be seen one by one. When she came back one by one, she didn''t let her play tablet. Because I haven''t been with my mother for a week, I''m not surprised one by one. He Yining has been talking about things in school. He is very excited and can''t remember those things at all. However, he Yining said ten words in his mouth one by one, and at least eight words were inseparable from Jane Jie, indicating that he was so stuffed in his heart. "One by one," he Yining tried to guide, "well, look, there are so many children in Spencer, you don''t have to focus on Xiaojie alone!" "But only he looks the best!" One by one, he looked at his eyelashes. "Besides, Xiao Jie is also the smartest and can play the piano. It''s really great!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± He Yining looked at one by one powerlessly. Why did she think she saw the look of her infatuation for Li Yunze''s face when she was a child? No, I can''t. I must let Li Yunze teach my daughter how to be a high cold fan. Thinking of Li Yunze, why did Ning zhe lower the corner of his mouth and subconsciously take his mobile phone and look again. Li Yunze has ignored her for more than 24 hours since she separated from the operation last night. Her text messages are drowned in the sea, almost making her think that Li Yunze didn''t receive them at all. Put down your cell phone, why would you rather see that one by one is a little sleepy and take her to wash and sleep. When I returned to my room and looked at the bed where I slept with Li Yunze the night before yesterday, the sense of loss swept through my heart again. People are like this. Knowing is one thing, but it is always difficult to do it. Closing the door, he Yining looked at the empty bed and said, "Li Yunze, I firmly believe in you. I don''t count what I see. I just believe in you... You won''t let me down, will you?" No one answered why Ning. She had been sleeping alone for many years, but she was not used to it because of Li Yunze. Lying in bed, why would you rather toss and turn than sleep. "Ah ah!" Why should Ning bite his teeth? After yelling like a small animal for a few times, he suddenly sat up, took his mobile phone and dialed Li Yunze''s number Li Yunze waited for the result of silence''s decomposition reagent, looked at the caller ID and gradually became distracted. He should not answer, but when he picked it up and put it in his ear, he suddenly came over. "Li Yunze, are you busy?" As soon as the phone was connected, there was a questioning voice of he Yining, but in the voice, it was clearly soft and waxy. Li Yunze tried to feel the feeling of pricking his heart. It''s so delicate that it won''t happen all at once, but it makes you feel suffocated. "I came out from the general manager of the army and went directly back to Huakang. I haven''t left yet." As soon as he Yining heard this, she opened her mouth slightly, "you''re really busy..." she paused. She lowered her eyes and apologized in her voice, "I''m sorry, I..." Listening to the voice of he Yining, Li Yunze''s heart twisted again. "You''re busy first. I''m going to bed, too." He Yining felt Li Yunze''s silence, his hand gently sliding the quilt, and his heart was a little heavy, "good night." "Good night!" Li Yunze hung up the phone and couldn''t see the bottom of his eyes. He kept this posture. I don''t know how long it took until the mobile phone rang again Li Yunze glanced at the name of ''Qu Weiwei'' and then said, "I''m finished here. Come to Huakang to find me." Chapter 1370 "I''m already in Huakang. I don''t want you to wait for me so late. I''ll come first." Qu Weiwei smiled and said, "I''m in the leisure bar here." Li Yunze slightly deepened his eyes. In the depths of his sight, he gradually crossed with a touch of light emotion, "OK, I''ll wait." "Yes." After Li Yunze hung up the phone and looked at the decomposition of silence, he packed up his things, left the laboratory and went to the leisure bar in Huakang. "Li Shao." Li Yunze nodded and walked to Qu Weiwei. "Seriously, I really don''t want to bother you so late..." Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze''s tired face and said, "if it''s not necessary tomorrow." "Fortunately, I''m used to it." Li Yunze''s tone was faint. "Why do you have to make yourself so tired?" Qu Weiwei has suppressed heartache in the fundus of her eyes. Li Yunze looked at Qu Weiwei''s forbearance at the bottom of her eyes, faintly took back her sight, turned her head and looked out of the window It was dark and quiet in the hospital. At this time, the people in the leisure bar are basically many insomnia people in the hospital, who want to find a quiet place to relax. Huakang is a private hospital. It does a good job and the charge is naturally not cheap. It''s not just healing, it''s healing. It''s not that they give up the treatment of their subconscious illness, but that they don''t give up the treatment of their subconscious illness. Big brother once said: the hospital is full of the smell of disinfectant. People everywhere look heavy. In such a place, patients have been put in a depressed place. Therefore, Huakang is different from other hospitals. There are not only leisure bars, but also entertainment places such as projection room and game room. The canteen is not a single kind of fast food, but also a lot of delicious food. Of course, it''s not that you can play as long as you want, or you can order whatever you want The chefs and service staff here are professionally trained. If they conflict with your condition, they will never give it to you. This is an idealized hospital for big brother, so Huakang began to realize it more than ten years ago. "Is it because of brother Yunhao?" Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze''s expression and guessed. Li Yunze looks at Qu Weiwei and is not surprised that she will know. After all, she was the one who followed Yining from childhood to adulthood. "What about the contract?" Li Yunze asked. Qu Weiwei ''Oh'', took out a contract from her bag and handed it to Li Yunze, "one year, although it''s nominal, you don''t care, but I''ll pay the nominal fee of the market price." "I..." "I know you don''t need it." Qu Weiwei pulled the corners of her mouth with self mockery, "Yunze, don''t let me have too much reverie about you. I''m afraid if it''s not business, I''ll..." Li Yunze raised his eyes and looked at Qu Weiwei. His expression remained unchanged, but his mind was thinking that she was drunk in the hotel before. What she said to him, did she know he was drunk or not?! "Can you agree? I''m already very happy, so can I not refuse this?" Qu Weiwei asked with a smile. Li Yunze looked down at the contract and signed on it, "I''ll take you out." Qu Weiwei looked down at the water in front of Li Yunze and saw that he didn''t move at all. The complex sense of loss came from her heart. If he Yining came to him at this moment, would he be so anxious to send him away? Or is it because you''re upset about why "OK." Qu Weiwei collected her mind and took the contract with a smile. After reading and signing, she pretended, "you''re too busy to delay you." Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei, who had a pocket with one hand, walked out shoulder to shoulder. They just met yanmiao on duty and two nurses outside God who came to buy coffee. "Yo," Yan Miao said with a voice a little singing when he looked at Qu Weiwei and his eyes fell on Li Yunze''s face. "Li Shao is in a good mood. I''m so busy and still have time to meet a beauty. I''m the envy of a single dog like me." Said, and also picked eyebrows with the two nurses around him. The two nurses didn''t find the sarcasm in yanmiao''s tone. They held their mouths one by one and said, "doctor Yan, do you think we can have someone? We have to work overtime at night. Even if we have a boyfriend, we probably have to find another woman." Yan Miao smiled and looked at Li Yunze with deep meaning. "Indeed, men, three legs, one leg can''t control!" At last, yanmiao glanced at Qu Weiwei obliquely, "mainly because there are too many green tea in the world!" The two nurses felt the unusual atmosphere, looked at each other and said, "go buy coffee." Yanmiao snorted coldly, completely ignoring the strange sight of Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei, and said with a proud step: "sister, I''m suddenly in a good mood. Treat!" She looked back at Li Yunze and sneered meaningfully. Qu Weiwei slightly clenched her hand, covered up the rising anger, and tried to pull the corners of her mouth, "let''s go!" Li Yunze didn''t speak. He stepped out of the leisure bar, sent Qu Weiwei on the bus and watched her leave. The original expression on his face slowly disintegrated at the moment he turned around. ¡­¡­ Xia Xiao received a strange text message, looked at the content, stared and gnashed his teeth. She knew that there were women outside Cheng Guangying, but she was just playing. She would never want those women''s children. Cheng Guangying is a very pedantic man in some aspects. In his concept, women are used to play and wives are used to have children and run a family. Therefore, he has a strong concept of son preference. However, now her "son" has been miscarried by accident. If other women are pregnant and a son, Cheng Guangying will stay. Xia Xiao sat in the car and stared closely at the door of Wangjiang building. She wanted to see which fox spirit dared to secretly carry Cheng Guangying to get pregnant. Upstairs, five dishes and three drinks. "President Jin, what''s your activity?" Cheng Guangying asked with an eyebrow. Jin shaosi looked at the time, "go to the dark field." The dark field is an insider''s talk. It''s an underground gambling shop. It''s directly for members, and Cheng Guangying is the same. Jin shaosi looked sideways at the woman on one side, "wait, you go back first. I''ll come to you when I''m finished, huh?" "OK." The woman is obedient, "I''ll leave half a bed for you..." Cheng Guangying knew that women in that kind of place were just playing. Naturally, it was difficult to take them. In addition, Tian Tian''s performance tonight annoyed him, so she let her go back by herself. Four people went out of Wangjiang building. Two women watched the two men get on the car and leave. Then they were ready to say goodbye to each other. As soon as Tian Tian came out of the Wangjiang building, Xia Xiao saw it. A pair of eyes stared at her belly. When she came down the stairs, her men consciously covered her belly and believed the source of the information. After getting off the bus, Xia Xiao came forward and slapped Tian Tian in the face. "Cheap woman, seduce my husband..." Xia Xiao scolded with gnashing teeth and pulled Tian Tian''s hair to one side to repair her. She can guarantee that the woman''s child has not been known by Cheng Guangying, otherwise, she will never stay. Well, this woman must want to see the gender of her child and then tell Cheng Guangying. If it was a boy, Cheng Guangying would not be willing to let her take it off. Suddenly "Ah" came. Xia Xiao didn''t know who tripped over, so she dragged Tian Tian down to the ground without control. Unfortunately, she sat on Tian Tian Tian''s belly. At the same time, Cheng Guangying and Jin shaosi, who had left, did not know why, just turned back and saw the scene. Chapter 1371 When the two had left, Cheng Guangying suddenly received a phone call from Jin shaosi, saying that things had been left in Wangjiang building. He asked him to go to the dark field first, and he turned them back to get them. Cheng Guangying naturally could not leave on his own. He followed Jin shaosi and turned back. Just in time, I saw Xia Xiao fall with Tian Tian''s hair Tian Tian only felt that there was a sticky hot wet scratch at the root of her thigh. Her tears fell down at once. At that moment, the soul in her body quietly passed away. She found that she not only wanted Cheng Guangying''s children to keep her position, but also was not willing to live silently in her body. There were onlookers around, and some even took out their mobile phones to shoot videos. Among the crowd, some reporters don''t want to miss the "Kaka, KaKa" photos of this big play. The ambulance came quickly. Because of a sudden fall, there was a problem with the lumbar spine. Xia Xiao and pale Tian Tian were sent to the hospital. Naturally, Cheng Guangying and Jin shaosi, who originally wanted to go to the dark field, didn''t go. "Mr. Jin, it''s really a joke for you..." Cheng Guangying pulled his mouth awkwardly. "Let''s go and have a look first. It''s okay." Jin shaosi motioned Lu fan to get what he had left behind. Two people drove behind the ambulance to the hospital. Soon, the examination results came out. Xia Xiao doesn''t have a big problem, that is, just rest for two days. But Tian Tian is not so lucky. The child who has been well protected has left her body in the end. "No wonder Miss Tian refused to drink at that time," Jin shaosi sighed lightly. "President Cheng, this is your fault. You don''t know that a woman is pregnant. Isn''t something wrong now?" His face became more and more embarrassed and capricious. "Alas, no matter the women at home or outside, they have to deal with it well. Otherwise, such a situation..." Jin shaosi wanted to stop talking. But every word fell into Cheng Guangying''s ear. Also let him extract two important information. One is Tian Tian''s pregnancy, and the other is Tian Tian''s abortion caused by Xia Xiaonong. If Cheng Guangying believes in the Warlock''s words, if he is the first to identify his son, according to the month of pregnancy, isn''t Tian Tian pregnant with his son? Now, it doesn''t matter what Tian Tian Tian is pregnant with. What matters is Cheng Guangying''s determination. Jin shaosi left the hospital with a sneer across the corner of his mouth. "Boss, why did you help Li Yunze?" Lu Fan glanced at Jin shaosi from the rearview mirror and looked puzzled. "This opportunity is so good that you can pull back miss he''s heart." "I also want to..." Jin shaosi didn''t hide, "but I don''t want to hate me." He would rather hurt himself than she hated him. Lu Fan sighed, started the car and left the hospital. Jin shaosi looked out of the window and said, "Li Yunze is also a character..." his eyes crossed and appreciated, "such a play will not only give Ning a clear charge, but also make Xia Xiao live in the pain of regret forever." ¡­¡­ "Doctor Yan, Li Shao asked you to go to his office to find him." Yan Miao listened and turned his eyes: villain. "Doctor Yan, it''s not because of what I just said?" The two nurses who followed were worried, "but you didn''t mean him... Although Li Shao is also a three legged man." "Pooh Pooh!" yanmiao was amused by the nurse''s words. "You''re an active atmosphere. Let me take it easy?" The nurse shrugged and said, "no, I light candles for you." "Thank you, Ow!" Yan Miao turned his eyes and turned to find Li Yunze. Li Yunze took his mobile phone and looked at the text message he Yining sent him again and again. He is now more and more able to understand Beichen''s thoughts about Jian Mo, which is a kind of happiness under caution and a kind of helplessness under worry. "Dong Dong!" Li Yunze revived, pressed out his cell phone and said, "come in." Yanmiao pushed the door and came in, with a strange expression on his face and a strange voice: "Li Shao, what''s the matter?" Li Yunze smiled when he saw yanmiao like this, "you just scolded me. I haven''t been angry yet. You are the first..." "Personal question?" Yan Miao immediately sat down and stabbed, "Li Yunze, just say, what do you want to do?" "If I don''t go back at night, I''ll stay in the hospital..." Li Yunze said faintly, "well, take your leave." Yanmiao can''t understand Li Yunze now. She is on duty at night and will rest during the day tomorrow. If she has a holiday now, it''s equivalent to taking over at noon the day after tomorrow "If you are courteous, you will steal if you commit adultery." "Come back one by one. You''ll go out with Yining tomorrow." Li Yunze opened his mouth and took out a card. "No matter what, I''ll pay for it." "Why don''t you go yourself?" Yan Miao frowned, "Li Yunze, what do you mean?" "Nothing, busy." Li Yunze''s voice was still calm, "well, you can go." Yanmiao really hates Li Yunze''s dead appearance. In the eyes of others, it is a fatal temptation, but in her eyes, it is Well, the look of abstinence is still tempting. "I tell you, Li Yunze, I won''t say anything good to you, nor will I tell Yining and one by one!" Yan Miao gnawed his teeth in a hurry. "No!" "...." yanmiao picked up the card, "you''re cruel!" Shit, she must swipe her card to make a sky tomorrow. Well, what''s the reason? Say you won the lottery Hey, do you want to paint a house for Jining and a car for her and Zihan first? Shit, forget it. Aren''t all three of them kept by Li Yunze? Cheap to death, dream! Yanmiao left and slammed the door of the office with anger, disturbing the people on duty. They looked at each other and thought that yanmiao had been instructed by Li Yunze in the evening. But when they saw her go, they all looked puzzled. This is... The rhythm of leaving the job?! The next day, a new wave of news ravaged the weekend again. First, it was revealed that Qu Weiwei went to Huakang in the middle of the night and left two hours later. It was sent by Li Yunze himself. Everyone speculated that the two people were afraid that a good thing was coming. Second, Xia Xiao tore Xiao San''s hand, causing Xiao San to miscarry. It even broke out that Xiao San was pregnant for nearly three months, even earlier than Xia Xiao Some people sympathize with Xia Xiao. Just after the abortion, they found that the woman around her husband was pregnant, but fortunately, they also had a miscarriage, and they were all "happy". Some people began to sympathize with Cheng Guangying and lost two children all at once. Some people jokingly said that Xia Xiao''s children are gone, and Cheng Guangying wants to sue why Yining. Now that the third child is gone, do you want to hire another lawyer to sue your wife He Yining looked at Qu Weiwei''s news and said that it was false if she didn''t feel bad. In particular, that time was when she called Li Yunze He couldn''t answer the phone at that time because he was with Qu Weiwei? He Yining gently bit his lower lip and looked at the second news. When she finished reading, she suddenly frowned Is there such a coincidence?! Chapter 1372 He Yining watched Qu Weiwei''s news again and Xia Xiao''s news again. The two news stories can''t beat each other. However, they all have one thing in common. That is, it''s all about her! He Yining looked at the report, which emphasized and even mentioned several times that Xiao San was pregnant earlier than Xia Xiao, and even mentioned that Cheng Guangying''s dream of wanting a son was dashed twice. Is the point of gossip wrong?! He Yining was washing one by one, thinking about two news, plus Li Yunze''s attitude before and after, and Jin shaosi''s words "Mom, too much toothpaste!" Blinking curious eyes one by one, he Yining looked at the distracted. Why should Ning suddenly return to his mind, look at the mess of toothpaste made by himself, and look at one by one with a flat mouth, "mom is distracted." "Are you thinking about that uncle?" Asked one by one. Why rather gently scraped the small nose of the next one, "one by one?" One by one wrinkled his nose and muttered, "I don''t want to..." He Yining looked at one by one and smiled. "He is a very powerful doctor. He wants to save many people. Sometimes natural time can''t be controlled by himself." She got toothpaste again. "One by one, do you want your uncle to save people, or..." "Save people..." one by one hung his eyes, and there was still a small loss in his eyes. Yanmiao is in he Yining and 11. Just after washing, he arrives. "Aunt Yanyan, miss you one by one!" Holding yanmiao one by one, he kissed her. "Aunt Yanyan took one by one out to eat, drink and have fun today. Are you happy?" "Happy!" One by one smiled and nodded, "I''ll change my clothes first." "Well, go!" After he Yining went to the bedroom one by one, he looked at Xiang yanmiao and wondered, "I remember correctly. You should have been on the night shift last night and left work this morning?" Yan Miao picked her eyebrow. "I thought I wouldn''t come today. I went to school one by one. I won''t see you for another week." "Really?!" Why is the sound dragging a little longer. "What do you think?" Why would you rather smile than smile? "Yan Yan, your spirit doesn''t seem to be on the night shift." "It''s not that I can''t sleep on the night shift. I was fine last night." "Oh?" He Yining still didn''t believe it. His eyes stared at yanmiao as if he wanted to see her without hiding, "be honest!" Yan Miao sighed, "Yining, just say, what do you want me to tell you?" He Yining looked at yanmiao, finally smiled and shrugged, "I''ll change my clothes first." She is stupid, but she is not stupid. Li Yunze hurt her. It''s natural for her, so there''s no need to do anything in advance? But during this time, Li Yunze was very kind to her. His good is different from ace. Take back ho''s winery and vineyard because of her former home. Li Yunze''s kindness to her is subtle. He is very busy. She knows how busy he is. But even then, he will remember to remind her to eat, he will also know that she is lazy to eat and order takeout for her. That day, he was accused of medical malpractice. He was clearly busy with Grandpa Lin''s operation in the early stage of the general manager of the army, but he still came to her because he was afraid that she would not eat, so he accompanied her and looked at her at the same time. When she was besieged by lawyers, he even thought ahead of time to ask Shaochen to help her with Dai Wen All this is a bit and a bit into the heart. Such Li Yunze''s sudden indifference is why she doesn''t know, but if this is what he wants, she can cooperate with him. But she wanted to let him know that she believed him, even if some things were seen by her eyes. I had a good time this day, and Yan Miao was not soft on spending money. In the evening, after dinner, yanmiao and he Yining sent them to school one by one. They didn''t leave until they returned to the urban area. He Yining didn''t go home, but went to Li Yunze''s apartment ¡­¡­ Li Yunze lay lazily on the sofa upstairs of devil "s kiss, with his long legs on the tea table. Obviously, his face was a little tired, but people couldn''t see a trace of decadence. Xiao Qiang ''sizzled and sizzled'' ate the spicy hot brought by Li Yunze and scolded while eating, "will you put too much pepper? It''s really going to be hot to death?" Then he took one side of the cake and ate it. "Forget you can''t eat chili..." Li Yunze said casually. He just bought food for Xiao Qiang by the way. He happened to pass by a spicy hot shop, so he instinctively went in and bought it, and then subconsciously asked him to put the amount of pepper he Ning likes to eat. Alas, I really can''t blame him for this subconscious thing! Xiao Qiang''s forehead make complaints about sweat. He eats and tuck up. "Next time, remember to put it down a little. It''s really killing." "You can choose not to eat." "..." Xiao Qiang grinned, "I''m hungry, I eat, I have no backbone... All right!" Li Yunze smiled, looked at Xiao Qiang''s resentment that he couldn''t go out with Xiao Yu because he had to wait for him, and shook his head. "In other words, Xia Xiao''s woman really doesn''t have a brain. You guessed it completely. As expected, she couldn''t help it." Xiao Qiang stuffed the last cake into his mouth and tried to alleviate the spicy taste. He said vaguely, "I thought you were a gentle Li Shao. I didn''t expect you to be cruel and no worse than Chen Shao." "Those who get close to me are black. I was very gentle." Li Yunze said seriously. "..." Xiao Qiang twitched at the corners of his mouth, "really, I feel like vomiting just after eating." Li Yunze made a gesture of convenience. Xiao Qiang squinted discontentedly, "what are you going to do next?" Li Yunze immediately smiled coldly at the corners of his mouth, "give Xia Xiao''s blood test list to Cheng Guangying!" "Tut Tut, now, Xia Xiao is completely finished..." Xiao Qiang said with "sympathy" on his face. "According to Cheng Guangying''s venture capital company, there are some ways involved in the underworld. I''m afraid domestic violence is possible?" Li Yunze''s face became more and more indifferent. For such a result, he would not have any sympathy for Xia Xiao. "The next thing is the exposure of Cheng Guangfeng''s business," Xiao Qiang said with a smile. "Tut Tut, it''s the second scene again." Five Xiao, basically have their own strengths. For example, Xiao Qiang to computer, Xiao Jing to business Li Yunze left devil "s kiss after finishing all the next things. At night, Li Yunze drove his car to and fro on the road of Los Angeles. The corners of his mouth were filled with a cold smile. Next, it''s Devon''s home court. Let Yining completely clear the charge All this is a series of chain reactions caused by Xia Xiao''s tearing up Xiaosan last night, which has nothing to do with him. Then it was another thing he suspected. With a ''ding'', the elevator arrived at the floor. Li Yunze stepped out indifferently. When he saw he Yining sitting on the ground at the door of his apartment, his eyes suddenly split into complex emotions. He Yining had been lying on her knees. When she heard the elevator ring, she subconsciously looked and saw that it was Li Yunze this time. The corners of her mouth rose, and in her voice she said with a touch of coquetry: "you''re back..." Chapter 1373 Li Yunze''s feet seemed to grow roots there. Looking at him, he Yining still sat on the ground and smiled at him. At that moment, Li Yunze''s heart seemed to be twisted and twisted together with his hands. The pain made him a little unbearable. "You..." Li Yunze''s voice was dry and dumb, "Why are you here?" "After I sent one by one, I came to wait for you." He Yining said with a smile. She wanted to get up, but because she kept that position for too long, she didn''t stand up straight, and her legs suddenly softened "Well..." Why should Ning give a soft cry? When his body was shaking, Li Yunze stepped forward with an arrow and held her. "Don''t you know the password of the room?" Li Yunze''s voice blamed, "why don''t you go in and wait and have to sit here?" Why should I rather curl my lips, "how do I know if you can come back?" She twisted her numb ankle. "Moreover, I thought if you haven''t come back at twelve o''clock, I''ll go to Huakang to find you." Li Yunze frowned slightly and looked at why he was rather coquettish and angry, with mixed feelings in his heart. Entering the password into the room, Li Yunze put he Yining on the sofa, "have you eaten?" "Yes." Why rather pick eyebrows, "we ate all three of us before sending them to school." "Hmm..." Li Yunze answered faintly and poured water for he Yining. "Li Yunze..." "Yes." "Is the card Yan Yan took yours?" He Yining said with a proud and charming feeling of a detective, "what else is winning the prize? I haven''t seen her have that luck." Li Yunze put the water cup in front of he Yining and looked at her with a frown. The fundus of his eyes was even more complicated. "Li Yunze, can you tell me what you are doing these two days?" He Yining held the cup and drank water. Before swallowing it completely, he hurried to say, "I''m afraid I didn''t eat and let ace come to me. You''re not afraid..." Li Yunze was a little sweaty and asked instinctively, "what did Mr. Jin say to you?" "Sure enough!" Why would you rather pick your eyebrows. ¡°¡­¡­¡± Li Yunze grinned secretly. Why did he follow what he Yining said. He Yining put down his cup and got up. He came forward and hugged Li Yunze''s waist. He posted his face on his heart and listened to the strong and regular beating sound there. "Li Yunze, I don''t know what you want to do, but I want to believe you." "But why do you want to tell me?" Li Yunze didn''t speak, just subconsciously and instinctively hugged he Yining. He Yining felt this embrace and looked up with a smile from the corners of his mouth. At the right time, Li Yunze lowered his eyes, and they looked up under the light A far-reaching, a bright. "Yining..." "Well, I know you won''t say." Why would you rather curl your lips, "if you want to say, you won''t ask me to ask..." She lowered her eyes, wrinkled her nose, and said, "anyway, I know, you just want to pretend to be indifferent to me and look like you hate me." "..." Li Yunze suddenly felt a faint smile on his lips. His silly Ning is so cute. But he really can''t tell her why he did it. If The death of uncle he and aunt he was really related to Yining. What was the significance of his investigation? Just to make Yining more sad, and can''t be with him? Hearing that Jin shaosi mentioned the cause of death of uncle he and aunt he, he was instinctively suspicious. But he didn''t know if he was afraid of such things because he was with Yining now As it happens, some problems need to be clarified. Then, let''s work together. "Li Yunze, you talk!" Suddenly, why Ning''s dissatisfied words interrupted Li Yunze''s thoughts. "What do you want me to say?" Li Yunze asked with a smile. "Tell me what you think or what you want to do..." he Yining said. "Didn''t you say it and ask me not to say it?" Li Yunze''s smile increased a little. He Yining frowned, "then tell me if you want to be indifferent to me as I said, although I don''t know who to show it to." Li Yunze didn''t answer, but looked more and more deeply at he Yining. "Look," he Ning said. "I''m a person who is the backbone of the school drama club from high school to college. I''m born to act or something." He Yining snorted, "I''m not in the mood to enter the performing arts industry. Otherwise, now I''m the queen of various film and Television Awards. It''s estimated that Lu man, who is particularly popular, can only be behind me." "Well, just blow..." Li Yunze said with a smile, "the cattle have reached the sky." "..." why did Ning stare, "I tell you, Li Yunze... I look back and get serious and scare you to death!" "OK, I''ll wait!" Li Yunze always smiled, but with layers of smiles superimposed, he was not comfortable before he came back, and he Yining''s body became satisfied at this moment. Why is there something flashing in Ning''s eyes? It seems that what she guessed is right. That''s nice Fortunately, she didn''t ignore many details because of her lack of confidence in Li Yunze. She knows Li Yunze. Not confident doesn''t mean she doesn''t understand, does she?! ¡­¡­ Cheng Guangying looked at the blood test report he received. It clearly said that the blood tester was Xia Xiao, and the purpose of the blood test was to measure the sex of the fetus in the abdomen The most important thing is that the final result shows that the child Xia Xiao is pregnant with is a girl! Cheng Guangying held his mobile phone and his hand trembled uncontrollably because of his anger. The warlock said that his first child was a son! Tian Tian''s pregnancy time is longer than Xia Xiao''s, so in fact, Tian Tian''s stomach is a son Xia Xiao killed her in the stomach because she was afraid that he would know that she was not pregnant with a son! Forget it, she killed his son herself because of jealousy! The more he thought about it, Cheng Guangying became more and more angry, and his face twisted and became ferocious. "OK, very good..." Cheng Guangying gnashed his teeth. "Xia Xiao, you cheap woman, I want to see. How can you explain it to me..." Cheng Guangying angrily went directly to Xia Xiao''s ward. There was no one in it. His eyes darkened. Cheng Guangying turned and went to Tian Tian''s ward. Sure enough, Xia Xiao was inside. "You fox, seduce my husband and want to have his children..." Xia Xiao angrily pointed to Tian Tian and scolded. Tian Tian''s eyes were red. "You don''t have the ability to take care of your husband. Now I have no children. Xia Xiao, you must die!" "You bitch..." With a bang, he fell down with great anger. Tian Tian widens her eyes and looks at Xia Xiao beaten by Cheng Guangying. She can''t react for a moment. Chapter 1374 Cheng Guangying slapped Xia Xiao with anger and almost fell down. If Xia Xiao didn''t subconsciously hold something aside The corners of the mouth were bruised, and the sweet smell spread in the mouth, and then a trace of blood spilled from the corners of the mouth. Xia Xiao covered the beaten cheek and looked at Cheng Guangying incredulously, "husband... You, you... Hit me?!" Xia Xiao suddenly collapsed, "you beat me for this fox spirit?!" The sharp voice, as if to penetrate the roof, immediately disturbed the ward area at night. "Hit you?" Cheng Guangying gnashed his teeth and said, "it''s cheap to beat you..." Tian Tian stood by the hospital bed, looking at the sudden reversal, looking at Cheng Guangying and Xia Xiao. However, at the moment when her eyes fell on Xia Xiao''s face, a touch of vicious revenge crossed her eyes. "Husband, you......" Xia Xiao still looked at Cheng Guangying with an unbelievable face. "You said you wanted to be good to me all your life. Now, you beat me for this woman "Xia Xiao, I really underestimated your mind." Cheng Guangying gritted his teeth and pointed to Xia Xiao and asked, "I''ll give you a chance. Tell me honestly, what''s the one you lost?" "What is what?" Xia Xiao was confused by the question. "You say, is it a son or a daughter?" Cheng Guangying gnashed his teeth. "Son!" Xia Xiao said with red eyes, "have you forgotten? The first is his son..." "Oh?" Cheng Guangying sneered and casually pointed to Tian Tian, "she has been pregnant longer than you. Isn''t it her son in her stomach?" "But she is not your wife. The man said, your wife, that is, me... The first one is a son!" Xia Xiao roared sharply. Cheng Guangying sneered, "as long as I want, any woman can be my wife." Xia Xiao immediately widened her eyes. At the right time, Tian Tian immediately looked pitiful after a ray of revenge flashed across the bottom of her eyes. "Guan Ying, our son..." Tian Tian cried, "our son is gone..." She choked and looked at Xia Xiao. Her eyes were immediately filled with malice under anger. "It''s her. She made our son disappear. Originally, you were the father who wanted to have a son!" "Fox spirit, shut up!" Xia Xiao angrily scolded, "son? What are you? I''m pregnant with a son..." "I was the first to get pregnant, so what''s in my stomach is my son. Yours is not at all." Tian Tian knew that the opportunity was not to be missed. She looked at Cheng Guangying sadly and said. Cheng Guangying thought about the reports of these two days and what the warlock said to him. Now Tian Tian''s month is bigger than Xia Xiao Most importantly, the anonymous blood test report! "Xia Xiao, I''ll ask you again," Cheng Guangying gnashed his teeth. "What are you pregnant with?" "Son!" With a "pop", Cheng Guangying slapped Xia Xiao in the face again. This time, he slapped her directly to the ground. Xia Xiao was stunned. Her eyes were full of disbelief under shock. "Let me see for myself..." Cheng Guangying directly threw his mobile phone to Xia Xiao. "Son? Ha ha, you vicious woman, you not only don''t have the ability to have a son for me, but also dare to kill my son!" Xia Xiao looked at the report form on his mobile phone and his face turned white, "no, no... it''s fake..." She grabbed Cheng Guangying''s trouser legs. "Husband, these are all fake. Someone must have wronged me..." she suddenly stared and hurried to say, "it must be he Yining. She wants to get rid of the charge. This must be forged by someone she found!" "I''m pregnant with a son..." Xia Xiao roared. "Whether your bad son or daughter, why would you rather have a medical accident? Would she do such a thing?" Tian Tian immediately exposed it. "Shut up..." "It''s you who shut up!" Cheng Guangying pulled out his trouser legs and looked at Xia Xiao with anger in his eyes. "Xia Xiao, I tell you... If there are any consequences because of what you do, I will not calm you down." Cheng Guangying snorted coldly, picked up his mobile phone, turned and left the ward. Now that things have happened, he must find a way to win the lawsuit. Only in this way can he have the capital to negotiate terms with Jin shaosi. Xia Xiao sat on the ground and the burning pain on her face made her clearly know that all this was not a dream. "Xia Xiao," Tian Tian squatted down slowly, "do you know how hard I work to protect this child?" She gritted her teeth. "Now you''ve killed my child, and I won''t let you live!" "You bitch..." "Pa!" Tian Tian slapped Xia Xiao in the face with great strength. "This is for my son to beat you... I tell you, Xia Xiao, we''ll see. I''ll see if Guangying protects you or me this time!" The bleak voice came from a mother who had just lost her child. She did everything she could to get ahead, but at the moment when the child lost from her stomach, she knew that it was a feeling of hollowing out! ¡­¡­ Tuesday. The medical malpractice case, which has been fermenting for a week, is in court. People who pay attention to the matter are waiting for the result of the trial one by one. In court, Dai Wen was confident and evil, and was overwhelmed by the fact that he had fought a decisive battle for thousands of miles. Lawyer Cao''s back is completely sweating. In Dai Wen''s seemingly unintentional but easily accessible questions, he can only hope that Xia Xiao can hold on. Unfortunately, who is Devon? That''s a person who can deal with a four member lawyer group without getting confused. Xia Xiao has nothing to hide in front of him. What makes lawyer Cao even more crazy is why he would rather admit death than enter oil and salt. The final result is that Xia Xiao falls into the trap of Dai Wen even if lawyer Cao interrupts with various objections because of Dai Wen''s various assumptions. The result is what lawyer Cao expected. However, the other side could have won by technical means, but it has become a clear win. "Mrs. Cheng..." Dai Wen leaned lazily on Xia Xiao''s table and said with a wicked smile, "what''s this called? You''ll die if you do more injustice!" After the judgment, Xia Xiao was sentenced to two years for tampering with the medical records of the hospital system and falsely accusing he Yining of a medical accident! Xia Xiao expects Cheng Guangying to save her, at least on bail But Cheng Guangying was too busy at this moment. The management department and the people''s Bank of China found the problem of Cheng Guangfeng''s internal accounts, and even the evidence of manipulating the stock market. Waiting for him will also be a major economic case! The news reported that it was not only Xia Xiao''s frame up, why Ning''s innocence, but also Cheng Guang''s venture capital. The people were sorry for the misunderstanding he Yining at the table. While scolding Xia Xiao''s despicable means on the Internet, they praised he Yining''s medical skills. Even, many people appreciate why they would rather not be afraid of power, be confident and stick to their abilities. Undoubtedly, after a week of turmoil, he Yining won the hearts of the people under the intentional guidance of the media. Qu Weiwei looked at the news reported on the computer with her eyes and gradually clenched her hands. Du Peishan hurriedly pushed the door and walked in, even forgetting to knock, "Vivian, now Cheng Guang''s venture capital has fallen, what about the customized jewelry we left the factory?" Chapter 1375 Xia Xiao just gave a deposit, but a large number of orders are made, and now no one receives them. The first large order of the studio will be unable to recover the cost, so the capital can not be turned around! Qu Weiwei''s hands clenched tighter and tighter, and her nails were embedded in the palm. There was a tingling pain, which could keep her brain awake. Because it''s a private customized style, naturally, no one else will want this batch of jewelry. Now, the only way is to deal with the jewelry. But the problem is that the cost of such customized payment processing can not be recovered. The most important thing is that it also has a great impact on her personally. "Vivian, the current situation..." "Shut up!" Qu Weiwei finally broke out, "I don''t know what the impact will be?" Du Peishan choked halfway through her speech. She smiled at the corner of her mouth and looked a little dignified. No one expected that such an accident would occur in the first large order back home. In today''s situation, even if the studio is looking for someone, there is no place to find it. Not only is Xia Xiao powerless, but Cheng Guangying is also too busy. He Yining Qu Weiwei stared at the three words "he Yining" on the title with her eyes, as if she was going to frustrate the name. Why, why should I be influenced by you now? Why don''t you have him as your backer? Now you have another Jin shaosi to stand out for you Even, the medical malpractice defense of Devon?! Why With a bang, Qu Weiwei''s clenched fist smashed on the desk. Du Peishan was shocked and looked at Qu Weiwei with some worry. "Vivian, why don''t... Find a way to deal with it, at least get back to the original slightly." Qu Weiwei closed her eyes and opened you again after a long time. "Let''s continue to do it in the factory. When this batch comes out, contact Meng Yi back and let him see the ways abroad and whether it can be sold on a commission basis..." Qu Weiwei said gritting her teeth. Daphne answered, "OK, I''ll contact you now." When the glass door was closed, Qu Weiwei clenched her teeth and tried to pull out a smile, but because she was angry, her facial muscles became very stiff and couldn''t pull out. "He Yining, I won''t let you live......" Qu Weiwei gnashed her teeth and stared, "sure!" ¡­¡­ "Are people crazy about their sons now?" "Yes, it''s wicked to frame a doctor with such good medical ethics and skills for their own status... Cheng Guangying and Xia Xiao deserve retribution." "Cheng Guangfeng investment suddenly fell, and many people were going crazy. After all, the money invested..." "Financial matters are risks..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± On the Internet, everyone is frantically discussing about the "he Yining medical malpractice trial" and the storm over the investigation of orange light venture capital. In this world, there will never be a lack of people who trample on others to entertain themselves. No matter what happened at the beginning, Xia Xiao''s imprisonment and Cheng Guangying''s venture capital company Li Yunze sat lazily on the chair, his elbows supporting the armrest of the chair, the back of his hand gently holding his chin, his eyes fell on the computer screen, and a faint smile came into his mouth. He is a doctor and his hands are saving. But that doesn''t mean he won''t ''kill''! The mobile phone suddenly rang and a text message arrived. Li Yunze took back his sight, put down the mouse''s hand, took the mobile phone and indifferently crossed the text message. Silly Ning: did you make the news guide? Silly Ning: if you don''t answer, I know it''s you. After all, you have a brother-in-law who works in the media. He should have a large number of people under his hand to guide the wind direction of public opinion and the report of the whole manuscript! Li Yunze smiled and replied: Well, you''re smart. Silly Ning: that''s necessary! Li Yunze''s smile spread over Junyan and gradually fainted at the bottom of his eyes: I want to study drugs at night. Remember to eat. Why should Ning keep her mouth shut? She just wanted to say that she wanted to keep him busy, but in such a situation today, she felt as if she and Li Yunze shared each other''s happy mood of "surreptitious". After thinking about it, why did Ning send a text message: Yan Yan is going to work tonight, and Zihan was promoted by her chief editor to the military region to do a special report... Li Yunze, do you really think I''ll be alone tonight? Li Yunze clenched his teeth secretly: he Yining, don''t seduce me! Why would you rather smile: if I seduce you, will you come with me? "..." Li Yunze found that he thought why Yining was not his childhood, and why Yining was his fault. Rivers and mountains are easy to change, but nature is hard to change! It''s a childhood. He Yining, who can be called a man of grinding essence! With a slight sigh, Li Yunze replied: don''t make trouble After a pause, Li Yunze sent another message: it''s cheap for you at night. Go find the spare tire for dinner! The sour text message made why Ning burst out laughing: Hey, Li Yunze, are you trying to advance by retreating? Or do you think I can''t be with ACE anyway, so you don''t care because of your confidence?! Li Yunze replied with a smile: both! Why should Ning curl his mouth and hum in his nose and say, "if one day I really run away with ACE, I''ll see how you hide in the corner and cry..." After Nan, he Yining didn''t reply to Li Yunze''s text message in order to express his angry attitude. He Yining went back to Shuya hospital and went to obstetrics and Gynecology first. "He Yanzhi, the doctor sighed again......". He Yining smiled. "It''s all right. I understand. Now I can''t be in obstetrics and gynecology. When I get the qualification, I can officially transfer to another department. I''ll come back." "OK," Chu Qin nodded with a smile, "I''ll wait for you." After a pause, she sighed and said with guilt, "I''m sorry. Although I believed you before, I couldn''t prove anything." "In that case, the exchange of positions is the same." Why would he rather not mind saying, "after all, I believe it is an affair, and such evidence makes people unable to refute." "Yes!" Chu Qin sighed, "if it hadn''t been for Xia Xiao''s scandal in Wangjiang building the night before yesterday, coupled with lawyer Dai Wen''s defense, who would have thought that she would have done such a thing because she was afraid that Cheng Guangying thought she couldn''t have a son?!" "So, I was also surprised by this result, not to mention the outsiders!" He Yining was completely relieved. Chu Qin looked at he Yining, a doctor full of vitality and positive progress. Is she old? Unexpectedly, I saw the light on he Yining "I''ll go to the Dean first." Chu Qin nodded, "go!" He Yining nodded with a smile and turned to Ma Guangming''s office. At the moment, Ma Guangming is having a hard time. He Yining just raised his hand and wanted to knock on the door. He heard Ma Guangming''s voice about to collapse Chapter 1376 "He Yining signed a five-year contract with Shuya. It''s only a few months. No one can poach her..." Do not know what the other party said, Ma Guangming suddenly shouted angrily: "I will not let people go if I pay liquidated damages!" After that, Ma Guangming directly cut off the phone and stood in front of the window with an angry akimbo, staring like an ox''s eye. "If you want to poach promising doctors from my hospital, don''t even think about it..." Ma Guangming said with gnashing teeth. "It''s not easy to get a layer of gold, so you want to dig people. Where can you get such a cheap thing?" Ma Guangming sneered, "can you give her so many conveniences like this with me?" "Dong Dong!" "Come in!" Ma Guangming''s anger hasn''t subsided yet, and his voice is a little blunt. Why did Ning push the door and come in, "Dean..." "Ah, doctor he!" As soon as Ma Guangming saw he Yining, he immediately greeted him with a smiling face. "I read the news. I didn''t expect Xia Xiao to be so vicious... Alas, if you didn''t know who you are at ordinary times, she really killed you!" As soon as Ma Guangming opened his mouth, he was talking incessantly. He didn''t need anyone else to interrupt for several minutes. Why Ning Zhe''s mouth is smiling. Naturally, he knows that Ma Guangming is a hindsight. But she doesn''t blame Ma Guangming. In that case, it''s very benevolent for him not to get rid of her directly. After all, we all know how much a medical accident will cost the hospital Of course, the main reason why she didn''t get rid of the relationship was probably because she was left in the operation team. Why should we be peaceful like a mirror? However, this society is like this. The relationship between people often needs a layer of hypocrisy mask to keep them from getting along with each other. After hearing what Ma Guangming said, he Yining said with a smile: "Dean, don''t worry, I won''t leave the hospital within the contract period." Ma Guangming was stunned at first, and then he grinned, "doctor he, I knew you were a sensible and emotional person..." I''m afraid I''ll go back to Guangming again after I get the obstetrics qualification. I''m afraid I''ll talk again soon "Well, well, I''ll explain it to the surgical department." "Dean, I''ll be busy first..." "Doctor he, you''ve been busy with surgery last week and cases these two days. You''re very tired physically and mentally. Why don''t... I give you a few days off to have a rest?" Ma Guangming said with a grin, "don''t worry, take paid leave and don''t occupy the annual leave!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Why Ning twitched at the corner of his mouth and looked at Ma Guangming suspiciously. This painting style... Something is wrong! "Oh, no, I''ll report to the general foreign affairs department and I can go to work tomorrow." "Really not?" Why rather shake his head, "no!" Seeing her sincerity, Ma Guangming gave up and said, "if you have any personal difficulties, come to me... The hospital is very sorry about you this time. It is the hospital''s intention to have the opportunity to make compensation." Why rather pulled the corners of his mouth, nodded and left. Until people go out, they don''t understand. Is Ma Guangming''s attitude too exaggerated?! What I don''t know is that because of her surgical ability and this incident, she can firmly face everyone''s doubts, appreciate her and want to dig her in the past. Ma Guangming is an old fox in the drug supply of Huakang pharmaceutical. Although she has no real reason to hammer, she knows that as long as she is in Shuya, it will be easier for her to take medicine than others. The world is often hypocritical and driven by interests. Naturally, Ma Guangming''s attitude is not so difficult to understand. He Yining returned to the general foreign affairs department, reported for duty and handled some procedures, received the care of some medical staff and patients, and left the hospital. When the talent stepped out of the building of the inpatient department, the mobile phone rang He Yining took out his mobile phone and saw that it was Jin shaosi. He first frowned, then crossed his eyes and picked it up clearly, "ah Si, do you want to have dinner together in the evening?" When Jin shaosi was about to speak, he Yining choked on him. He smiled. "How do you know I''m calling for dinner?" He Yining didn''t say, because she guessed Li Yunze''s plan, and naturally knew that Jin shaosi was also cooperating with Li Yunze now. "At this time, plus today''s business, your phone almost wants to invite me to dinner in the evening." Jin shaosi''s eyes gradually became more and more profound, and there was a faint loss under a smile on his face Yining, I don''t know if you know what Li Yunze wants to do, but at this moment, I know you trust him unconditionally Drooping his eyes and gathering away the helplessness, Jin shaosi said, "what do you want to eat?" "I''m out of the hospital now. I''ll go to the winery to find you." He Yining said. "Well, good!" "See you later." He Yining said with a smile, hung up the phone and took the subway to the winery. ¡­¡­ After Li Yunze read the report decomposed by silence again, a little doubt gradually appeared at the bottom of his eyes. If It''s really the same as he guessed. Maybe, silence is not necessarily indecomposable. However, we have to wait until Beichen comes back for discussion. Look at the time. It''s already more than six o''clock in the afternoon. Li Yunze rubbed his chin, got up, put the report away and left the laboratory. As he walked to the office, he took his cell phone and indifferently dialed Qu Weiwei''s phone Qu Weiwei closed her eyes, put her hand on her forehead and thought about the destination of this batch of customized jewelry If she doesn''t sell, I''m afraid all her savings over the years will be taken in because of this order. When the mobile phone rang, Qu Weiwei twisted her eyebrows and picked it up. Seeing that it was Li Yunze, her eyes immediately lit up, "Yunze?" Li Yunze was silent first, then asked in a faint voice, "I just saw the report... If I remember correctly, orange light just ordered a batch of private orders with you some time ago?" Qu Weiwei said astringently, "yes!" She sighed with self mockery, "who knows it''s not a big order, but a pit." "What are you going to do?" Li Yunze asked. "Now we can only get the finished products out and find a way to sell them..." Qu Weiwei said. "Otherwise, the loss is too big to bear." Li Yunze opened the door of the office. "There will be a private party tomorrow evening. Do you have time to go with me?" "Huh?" Qu Weiwei doesn''t understand. Li Yunze''s voice is still flat, "the other party will make some gifts in the near future..." As soon as Qu Weiwei heard it, her eyes burst into joy, "really?" "Yes!" Li Yunze looked at the time again. "Where are you? Eat together and talk when you meet." "I''m in the studio..." meanwhile. Jin shaosi took the red wine handed over by Tan Zhonglang, opened it and said to he Yining, "there will be a small banquet tomorrow night. If you''re okay, just be my girlfriend?" Chapter 1377 "Huh?" Why Ning looked at Jin shaosi with a slight frown and left his mouth, "I don''t want to go." "What?" He Yining shook his head, "you can let ruomin accompany you. Moreover, there should be media on such occasions. I don''t want to become a hot search figure in Los Angeles..." Jin shaosi smiled and looked at he Yining''s line of sight, gentle and profound. "Tomorrow is private, there is no media." Paused, "of course, if you really don''t want to go, I''ll go by myself." Feeling Jin shaosi''s helpless sigh, why did Ning zhe lower the corner of his mouth, "if there is no media, I''ll go with you." "OK." Jin shaosi smiled and looked at he Yining''s eyes, which became softer. "Try this..." In due time, Tan Zhonglang handed a glass of red wine to Jin shaosi. Jin shaosi took it, first looked at the wall hanging, and then took a shallow sip. The long wine taste spreads on the taste buds with mellowness. When it is drawn into the throat, the subsequent taste surges up with a memorable taste. "Alang, your skills have become more profound after so many years." After Jin shaosi''s evaluation, he looked at Tan Zhonglang. On the surface of indifference, there was a touch of emotional flow in the depths, "take this in the past tomorrow." "OK, I''ll pack two bottles for you." "Yes." After watching Tan Zhonglang leave, Jin shaosi calmly took back his sight and said to he Yining, "go to dinner first, huh?" "OK." Why did Ning get up with a smile and leave with Jin shaosi. At the right time, Tan Zhonglang, who was going to the wine cellar, looked back and looked a little dignified when he took back his sight. Tan Zhonglang stands in the finished wine storage cellar. The temperature is suitable for wine storage. At the end of summer, it is slightly cool. His eyes looked up and fell on the wine that Jin shaosi was going to give away tomorrow. Tan Zhonglang gradually turned the waves in the bottom of his eyes, which seemed turbulent and calm. ¡­¡­ After dinner, Jin shaosi sent he Yining home and left. "Boss, go back?" Lu fan asked. Jin shaosi glanced at the passing street scene in the night and looked back. Before he could say anything, the shock of the arrival of text messages came from his mobile phone. He took it out indifferently, opened it, deleted it after reading it, and slowly opened his mouth: "go to heaven night." "Yes!" Lu Fan answered and drove the car to heaven night. "Mr. Jin, Li Shao has been waiting for you in the box." Seeing Jin shaosi coming in, the waiter of Paradise night hurried forward and whispered the box number. Jin shaosi doesn''t know why Li Yunze offered here. Although the Fengyue place is a good cover up, it is also easy to be found. When Jin shaosi arrived at the box mentioned by the waiter, Li Yunze half collapsed on the sofa at will, and his legs were unbridled on the tea table in front. Seeing him coming in, he just raised his eyebrows and looked, "sit down." Jin shaosi walked over, "what''s up?" "Tomorrow I''ll take Qu Weiwei to old Feng''s little party." Li Yunze spoke directly. "It''s a coincidence," said Jin shaosi with a lukewarm smile, "I''ll take Yining with me." Li Yunze''s eyes were sharp and fleeting, "there is a tacit understanding." Jin shaosi sneered, "Li Yunze, we are not friends!" "Under the cooperative relationship, I didn''t regard you as a friend..." Li Yunze put down his legs, opened two cans of beer and handed Jin shaosi one. "I think if it wasn''t Yining, we would be friends." Jin shaosi still gave a cold hum. Li Yunze didn''t mind either. He just picked up the beer can, motioned, and then took a fierce sip. Jin shaosi swallowed the beer after turning it in his mouth. His arms supported his legs, his body leaned forward slightly, and his eyes showed a deep secluded distance. "Li Yunze, treat her well..." Jin shaosi''s voice was empty. "This is a warning. As long as you treat her a little bad, I''ll take her away." He slowly raised his eyes and looked at Li Yunze, "Los Angeles, you have the power of Gu Beichen. Maybe I can''t do anything to you." After a pause, his eyes were sharp and dark, "but in Brunei, that''s my world. Even Gu Beichen... I''m afraid I can''t help you." Brunei is a small country, but because of its developed economy, people familiar with it know what is surging secretly there. Jin shaosi''s words are not exaggerated at all. Besides, Jin''s group is made big by oil. That thing is black gold, which is the lifeblood of many places If Jin shaosi really wants to hide why he Ning, Li Yunze may not have a breakthrough for a while. "Will I be nice to Yining? I just need to make her feel..." Li Yunze tilted his head and slowly opened his mouth to Jin shaosi''s deep vision. "I don''t need to promise you anything." The sound of "Yiyi" surged under their thoughts. At the moment when they looked up, they had already made ten moves under the lightning and flint After a while, Li Yunze and Jin shaosi slowly restrained their confrontation momentum. As if there was a tacit understanding under "hostility", they raised the beer cans one after another, touched them and poured them out with their heads up. "If Yining''s parents really had a car accident because of her..." "Then she can''t know the truth in her life!" Li Yunze directly intercepted the words. Jin shaosi looked at Li Yunze indifferently, "I''m afraid some people will be very interested..." The voice of Leng hiss was ironic, not only to the person with a heart, but also to Li Yunze. Li Yunze glanced at Jin shaosi, put down the empty beer can and opened two more, "some things, if you don''t care, you won''t pay attention." He handed another can to Jin shaosi, "but if you care, you will naturally pay attention." Jin shaosi and Li Yunze looked at each other, didn''t speak, just looked up and drank the beer again in one breath. At night, red men and green women are seeking the stimulation of self indulgence. When Jin shaosi left heaven night, it was two hours later. No one knows what he and Li Yunze finally talked about except them. Bentley mushang shuttles through the night. Jin shaosi leans against the car seat, holding his mobile phone in his hand and closing his eyes. "Li Yunze, I wish I could be selfish. That way... I have too many opportunities." "You won''t!" Li Yunze answered firmly, "because you want to be happy and happy." Jin shaosi slowly opened his eyes. Without the surge of emotion just now, he just opened his mouth lightly: "let our people pay attention to the whereabouts of a lang." Lu Fan was slightly stunned and looked at Jin shaosi from the rearview mirror. "Boss means..." "No deep meaning." Jin shaosi''s voice is still very weak, "just, I don''t want to have some accidents, and I don''t want to be biased." Lu Fan frowned. Although he was curious about the conversation between Jin shaosi and Li Yunze, he didn''t ask any more, "OK, I''ll arrange it." Chapter 1378 the second day. Why? After work in the evening, Jin shaosi picked her up to the modeling flagship store. Take off your usual comfortable clothes, a bra, with some lotus leaves, dark twill meat pink dress, how to build a better body. The hair is simply shaped and matched with jewelry that highlights the temperament. Dr. he, who wears a white coat on weekdays, is a person from two worlds. In this way, she lacks the spirit when she was at home, but she still retains the nobility in her bones. "I''m a representative of the meager fat world. It''s rare for you to make me very thin..." he Yining looked at himself in the mirror and smiled at Mr. Jin. "OK, let''s go!" Jin shaosi slightly bent his arm. Why would he rather turn his mouth, pick his eyebrows and eyes, put his hand into his arm, left the modeling shop and got on the car with him. Feng Lao''s private banquet was held in his villa, in the villa area in the eastern suburb of Los Angeles. On the way, when Jin shaosi answered a business phone, he Yining''s mobile phone just heard the sound of short interest arrival. She took it out of her handbag and opened it. It was sent by Li Yunze: I''ll bring Qu Weiwei here tonight. Why should Ning curl his mouth? There is a proud reply in his eyes: it doesn''t matter. I''ll go with ACE. Jin shaosi Yu Guang stroked he Yining. Without any change in his face, he continued to communicate with the people on the phone in English, but his heart was filled with a touch of sadness. "..." Li Yunze looked at he Yining''s reply and twitched at the corners of his mouth: you are very proud, he Yining! Why should I smile at the corners of my mouth: it''s necessary! So, Li Yunze, you must protect yourself. If I know you are out of line, hey hey! Looking at why Ning clenched his teeth and warned, Li Yunze''s eyes were deep: no! Two words, seemingly ordinary, represent Li Yunze''s commitment to he Yining He Yining was happy. He flipped his fingers on the screen and replied to the past: I believe you. Li Yunze''s eyes were deep, and there was no action, but a voice came. He looked up indifferently and saw Qu Weiwei change into a wine red slanted shoulder dress and come out If he Yining''s temperament is noble in the bone, Qu Weiwei is the high cold demon charm processed the day after tomorrow. Such a woman will make men feel amazing at first sight, but it can''t be understood deeply. "You can go." Qu Weiwei said with a smile. Li Yunze nodded, got up and got into the car with Qu Weiwei. "You are so busy that you have to worry about my affairs..." Qu Weiwei felt guilty. "Yunze, I don''t know how to thank you." Li Yunze tilted his head and just smiled. "I just heard that old Feng''s wife wants to order a batch of jewelry to give away. Your design just doesn''t leak. Maybe it''s OK." Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze, and her eyes were filled with some flowing thoughts, which she didn''t have time to find. "Will there be a reporter over there?" Qu Weiwei suddenly asked. "Huh?" Li Yunze didn''t seem to respond to what she meant. Qu Weiwei sighed, "I''m afraid the reporter will scribble back and make Yining uncomfortable..." Li Yunze frowned slightly. His face was calm just now, a little heavy, and his voice said with indifference: "No." "No?" Qu Weiwei frowned. "Yes." Li Yunze''s voice was vaguely impatient. Qu Weiwei smiled secretly, but she didn''t show much on her face. She just nodded and said, "it''s not good..." ¡­¡­ Mr. Feng likes to have some private banquets that are not open to the media every once in a while. On the one hand, he likes to be lively, on the other hand, it is also to contact feelings. Jin shaosi was invited by Mr. Feng. He likes red wine very much recently. It is said that he is very expert in red wine and is interested in it. "Young secretary," old Feng smiled as soon as he saw Jin shaosi, "wait for you for a while, how can you come!" Jin shaosi smiled and handed over the red wine in his hand. "I just came out of the cellar yesterday, old Feng, have a taste!" "Ha ha, I have a good feeling. I also washed a bottle yesterday. I was just waking up and waiting for you to come over..." old Feng said, looking at he Yining. "Don''t you introduce it?" "Friend, why Yining!" Jin shaosi opened his mouth with a light smile. "A word is missing, isn''t it?" While Feng said vaguely, he felt his hand towards he Yining, "Hello, miss he." "Old Feng!" He Yining came forward with a smile. Old Feng looked at he Yining and suddenly frowned, "eh..." while he was wondering, he looked up and down at why Yining, then stared and said, "are you the girl of Tianshu?" Why rather smiled and nodded. "Oh, I haven''t seen you for ten years?" Old Feng looked at he Yining and sighed, "I really don''t know you anymore..." he said. He looked at Jin shaosi and said with a smile, "it turns out that you have a small mind to take down the winery and vineyard of he family!" Jin shaosi smiled and didn''t explain anything. But such a small emotion fell into old Feng''s eyes, which was completely clear. He Yining looked a little embarrassed. Just when he wanted to say something, old Feng suddenly looked through her and Jin shaosi, and the smile on his face was bigger. "Yunze!" Old Feng''s voice just fell. Why Ning''s obvious back stiffened, and then subconsciously looked back She saw Qu Weiwei come in with Li Yunze''s arm, smiling like a flower and showing pride. He Yining''s mouth slightly pricked, and a pair of eyes obviously had an uncomfortable light across After Qu Weiwei''s eyes crossed he Yining, she subconsciously took back her hand from Li Yunze''s arm, looking a little embarrassed. Li Yunze glanced at him, then looked at why Ning and Jin shaosi. A sneer of cold hum crossed the corner of his mouth. Li Yunze came forward to greet old Feng, handed the red wine from blues to old Feng, and then exchanged greetings. "Go and drink my bottle with me..." old Feng said, "let''s go." "That..." he Yining clenched his handbag, pulled the corners of his mouth and said, "old Feng, I don''t have that wisdom, so I won''t go." Old Feng patted his head, smiled and said, "I forgot. At that time, Tianshu said, you don''t love these. Drinking red wine is better than drinking coke!" He Yining smiled awkwardly. "Old Feng, I won''t go there either..." Qu Weiwei glanced at Mrs. Feng who was talking to several ladies. "I''ll go with Yining and say hello to her." Old Feng had no opinion, nodded and took Li Yunze and Jin shaosi, who were surging under the undercurrent, to taste his bottle of red wine. After the three left, why would they rather take back their eyes and turn around. "Yining..." Qu Weiwei shouted he Yining, "I didn''t expect you to come today." Why Ning sneered and turned to look at Qu Weiwei, "you still like to bully others." "Others?" Qu Weiwei smiled and said in a slightly provocative voice, "it depends... Whether it''s someone else''s!" Chapter 1379 Qu Weiwei deliberately accentuated the word "others" and looked at he Yining''s eyes with provocation under the enchanting surface. He Yining clenched his teeth secretly and tightened his hand with his handbag. It was obvious that he was holding back his anger. Qu Weiwei sneered, "but I advise you to take care of yourself first when you talk about others." "What do you mean?" Why Ning stared slightly. Qu Weiwei smiled enchanting again. In that way, she couldn''t see that she was talking about unpleasant things with others. Instead, it was like chatting between friends. "What do you mean?" Qu Weiwei snorted, "he Yining, eating in her mouth and looking at the pot, you are also a good means now." He Yining immediately understood that Qu Weiwei meant that she was "together" with Li Yunze, but she was entangled with Jin shaosi. When Qu Weiwei saw why Yining was choking, she suddenly understood why Li Yunze was in the car. She asked if he Yining would mind. He had that attitude It seems that it has something to do with major Jin?! Originally, the medical malpractice made them estranged. In addition, Li Yunze didn''t believe he Yining, but Jin shaosi hired a lawyer for her, even won the lawsuit and returned her innocence Whether Li Yunze or he Yining, their so-called "try" may have left a gap in each other''s hearts. "Qu Weiwei, no matter what means I am, I''m not as disgusting as your despicable means." Why should Ning bite his teeth and walk to Mrs. Feng. After saying hello, he Yining motioned to Mrs. Feng and went to the catering area while Qu Weiwei came over. Even if it is clear that everything is false, but in the face of Qu Weiwei''s face, why Ning really wants to tear her directly regardless of the occasion! chill! Calm down He Yining took the juice cup and kept breathing deeply to keep himself awake. But her such action fell into Qu Weiwei''s sight, not for calmness, but for anger, which could hardly contain the wildfire in her body. Secretly sneered. Qu Weiwei stared at he Yining while talking and laughing with Mrs. Feng. "I listened to my husband about Miss qu." Mrs. Feng smiled and said, "miss huihuiqu brought me the design and I''ll have a look. If it suits me, I don''t have to order elsewhere." "OK." Qu Weiwei smiled and said, "thank you for Mrs. Feng''s care." "Where..." Mrs. Feng smiled. "Miss Qu and Yunze are so close. After that, they are all people in the same circle. It''s also right to take care of each other." I don''t know if it was a coincidence or something. Mrs. Feng''s words were just returned. He Yining, who was going to the rest area, heard them. She clenched her lips tightly and looked at Qu Weiwei with a bad face. In her eyes, she was obviously sad. Qu Weiwei didn''t seem to see he Yining, but smiled with embarrassment because of Mrs. Feng''s words, and then said equivocally: "it''s my honor to have Mrs. Feng''s care." He Yining pinched the next plate, bit his lower lip, took a deep breath, took back his sight on Qu Weiwei, and went to the other side with some stiff body. While Qu Weiwei smiled, she glanced over and saw why Ning''s stiff back. She sneered, and a vicious light flashed through the depths of her eyes. "Miss Qu, excuse me." At the right time, Mrs. Feng saw a good friend coming, nodded with Qu Weiwei, smiled and went to meet the good friend. Qu Weiwei looked back and thought that the matter had been preliminarily settled. At the same time, she couldn''t help looking at he Yining. After she went to the dining area to get a glass of juice, she also went to he Yining. Most of the people in Feng''s circle are close friends, even if they come from the old circle. Now, on the whole occasion, it can be said that he Yining''s identity is the least integrated into the circle. But she came from a rich family in the end. Even though the Pearl has been ashed after years of polishing, the temperament in her bones can not be ignored. Qu Weiwei walked in little by little and looked at why Yining. It was like Dugu Aotian, but she looked cold and arrogant. She was inexplicably upset. Jin shaosi and Tan Zhonglang, who are also from he family winery, why can he Ning get the pursuit of Jin shaosi with different identity and status? After all these years, I still haven''t changed my mind about her. He Yining felt someone sitting opposite him, subconsciously looked up and saw that it was Qu Weiwei. Suddenly, a wave of irritability rushed up: "why do flies always like to stick to it?" Qu Weiwei smiled without anger. "What do flies like to paste?" Why did ningdun stare, bite his teeth and say, "low people are low. If you speak, you can''t go on the table at all." "He Yining," Qu Weiwei smiled enchanting, "who are we... Now we are low people. This is not what we say, that''s it!" Why Ning suddenly grabbed the juice cup and had the posture of directly picking it up and pouring it on Qu Weiwei. Qu Weiwei clearly saw through, but didn''t move her eyes, glanced lightly, and then said, "pour it!" She looked up at he Yining and said with a smile, "anyway, it''s not necessarily me who''s ashamed. It''s probably Jin shaosi, isn''t it?" "Qu Weiwei, don''t be too proud..." why would you rather gnash your teeth and stare into your eyes, "you have such a disgusting face. Sooner or later, Li Yunze will see it clearly!" Then he got up and wanted to leave with his plate and drink. Qu Weiwei has a deep vision. After listening to what he Yining said, she believes more and more that he Yining and Li Yunze may not be able to turn back because of the medical accident and the problem of Jin shaosi. Secretly sneered. When he Yining turned to leave, Qu Weiwei quietly stretched out her feet from the opposite side A cry of "ah" came, followed by the sound of glass and porcelain plates falling and breaking. The originally peaceful small banquet, because of such a sudden sound, disturbed everyone''s nerves, and subconsciously looked at the place where the sound came from He Yining stumbled at his feet. If he didn''t hold the back of the sofa on one side quickly, he might fall in a mess. But even so, why should the whole person look bad. Qu Weiwei had already got up when he Yining tripped, and came forward eagerly to help her, "Yining, are you okay? How can you be so careless? All the food is there. What are you worried about?" He Yining listened to the disgusting words and wanted to get rid of Qu Weiwei. He heard Qu Weiwei suddenly say in a low voice: "why, it''s not enough to make a fool of herself. Give Jin shaosi more shame?!" Chapter 1380 Why rather ''rub'' for a moment, her eyes shot at Qu Weiwei with anger, and her face was even more strange because of her embarrassment. Qu Weiwei''s eyes flowed, and the bottom of her eyes clearly wrote: why Ning? After so many years, why don''t you still learn well?! "Thank you for your kind reminder!" Why would you rather gnash your teeth and squeeze out words. At the right time, some servants have come to clean up the debris and residue, for fear that the glass residue will hurt the guests. The atmosphere was a little awkward. Mrs. Feng came to comfort he Yining. At the same time, she obviously appreciated Qu Weiwei in her eyes. Among the crowd, there were many who began to whisper. Because of the recent "medical malpractice" dispute of he Yining, some people here recognized her. "If you can''t get on the table, you can''t get on the table. What a shame." "Yes, I''m afraid I can''t eat these things at ordinary times?" "She''s just a doctor. For ordinary people, it''s a good job, but it''s impossible to enjoy these things in luxury..." "Tut Tut, it''s me. I have to find a ground seam to drill in." "Yes!" "On such an occasion, even if you want to eat again, you have to bear it... What''s more, at night, her figure is eaten out!" "Hahaha... It''s estimated that it''s almost the same!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Around, there was a small voice of discussion. That voice is the favorite way of speech of those who step on the low and worship the high in the rich and powerful family. Why not be a stranger? Although it doesn''t matter, it''s necessary to feel ashamed and embarrassed at the moment. And her expression like this, and her tight mouth, looking left and right, undoubtedly... Pleased Qu Weiwei. Something happened here. Old Feng, Jin shaosi and Li Yunze, who used to taste wine, also came out of the wine room inside. "What''s the matter?" Feng asked curiously. "Sir, a guest just broke the plate..." the servant said about the situation. Roughly, that is, the information we guessed from Qu Weiwei''s words after we were surprised. "What nonsense?" Old Feng immediately stopped drinking the servant. Let''s not say that he Yining came from a rich family. It''s impossible for something anxious about eating to happen. Just because she is Jin shaosi''s girlfriend now, how can it be? Although the Jin group does not have many industries in China, the Jin family is the largest family in Brunei. The oil exploration area under the Jin family is beyond the imagination of ordinary people. Jin shaosi''s face is not very good. Li Yunze''s face is indifferent. If you look closely, you can see a trace of sneer. Old Feng and the two went to the front. After someone whispered ''old Feng is coming'', the crowd subconsciously made way. He Yining looked at Li Yunze. When he saw the sneer suppressed by the indifference on his face, he gradually clenched his hand, and his face was completely sad. Jin shaosi came forward, gently pulled up why Ning''s hand, and rubbed the back of her hand with his fingers, trying to comfort her. He Yining looked at Jin shaosi and shouted in a complicated voice, "a si..." "It''s all right," Jin shaosi raised his hand with a smile and gently stroked why Ning''s slightly messy hair, "don''t worry, huh?!" Why did Ning zhe his lips and look at Jin shaosi''s gentle eyes like water? At that moment, I couldn''t tell the taste in my heart. Li Yunze looked at he Yining and Jin shaosi, who saw no one else, and his face began to darken slightly. The treacherous breath and look flowing among the three of them fell into Qu Weiwei''s eyes one after another, and she smiled secretly. Qu Weiwei walked to Li Yunze and said with some guilt: "Yunze, I''m sorry..." she looked back at he Yining. "I should take good care of it." "If one wants to die, can others control it?" Li Yunze''s voice was cold. Qu Weiwei looked a little embarrassed and sighed without saying anything. Jin shaosi pulled he Yining and turned around. His eyes crossed Qu Weiwei coldly. He passed Li Yunze indifferently without any stop and came to old Feng. "Thank you for your hospitality. I have something else to do, so I''ll go first." Jin shaosi could not hear any emotion in his voice, but his big palm tightly wrapped he Yining''s hand with strength. "If you are not well received, you can bring Yining to taste your aunt''s craft." Feng said with a smile. "Sure." Jin shaosi nodded and left with he Yining. However, when he passed Li Yunze indifferently, he Yining looked at Li Yunze with a complex face, and his eyes were filled with self mockery under sadness. "Is that Jin shaosi, President of Jin''s group?" "It should be almost..." "Didn''t he break the news that he was secretly married and had children? How to be with this woman..." "Who knows?!" "However, it''s not surprising that there are many people playing in the circle..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± In another round of whispering, Jin shaosi left with he Yining. Jin shaosi opened the door and waited until he Yining got on the bus before getting on the other side. "Ace, I..." "Why are you so careless?" The two voices sounded almost simultaneously. Why did Ning shrink his mouth and didn''t answer. In fact, when she turned around at that time, she saw Qu Weiwei''s actions. That was Qu Weiwei''s usual trick. She didn''t suffer the same loss. She didn''t avoid, just to make Qu Weiwei proud and think her treachery succeeded. However, because she knew, she didn''t fall, otherwise it would be more humiliating. "I..." "Alas!" Jin shaosi sighed softly, "stay away from her in the future." "I want to, but you see, is it possible?" Why should Ning pie his mouth, "I also don''t understand. When I was a child, my brain must be full of water and funny, so I can''t see human nature clearly." "I reminded you at that time and was scolded by you..." "..." why Ning twitched at the corners of his mouth and hurriedly said "no", but he was obviously guilty and had no momentum. "Take you to eat what you want!" Jin shaosi''s voice was totally spoiled, "you didn''t care about eating just now!" "Hot pot!" Why rather bite your teeth, "I must have a hot hot pot to offset the power of the famine in my heart at the moment!" Jin shaosi smiled and shook his head. Lu Fan went to the hot pot shop. Just, looking at he Yining''s line of sight, I couldn''t help being more and more profound. This is his favorite Yining. Apart from Li Yunze, who can hurt her heart, what can defeat her in this world?! ¡­¡­ Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei left at the end of the small party. Li Yunze sent Qu Weiwei back to Yudu apartment. "I said hello to old Feng again. You go back and find Mrs. Feng. There should be no problem." "Yes!" Qu Weiwei smiled and nodded, "Yunze, thank you." Li Yunze smiled and said nothing more. "Drive carefully on the road." "Good!" After Li Yunze watched Qu Weiwei go in, he started the car and left. He hung up his Bluetooth headset and dialed he Yining''s phone Seeing Li Yunze''s phone, he Yining gnashed his teeth at the name and snorted, "have you finished sending ''beauty''? Think of me? See if I can answer..." With that, she pressed the hang up button with a proud face! Chapter 1381 When the beep beep hung up, Li Yunze was stunned and then whispered, "Yo, you''re promising, you dare to hang up on me..." Li Yunze dialed again. He Yining hung up directly when he rang this time without hesitation. "He Yining, I think you really want to peel!" After humming a sentence in Li Yunze''s nose, he pulled off his Bluetooth headset and his eyes were full of anger to settle accounts. Over there, he Yining held his mobile phone, turned his eyes and said nothing to himself. Li Yunze didn''t intend to hang up the second phone call, but she subconsciously pressed it as soon as the mobile phone rang Then I hung up. "Another call..." he Yining held his mobile phone. "I won''t hang up this time!" Unfortunately, after waiting for several minutes, the mobile phone didn''t ring again. Why would you rather wrinkly your nose and hum aside your mobile phone, "Li, Yun, Ze, you are dead, determined! Hum!" Angrily, he Yining turned and went to the bathroom. He planned to wash and sleep. Starting from tomorrow, he angrily got the qualification of a gynecologist and obstetrician as soon as possible. Time slides a little bit. Why would you rather wash it out, wipe your hair with a big towel, and then take a hair dryer to blow your hair "Ding Dong!" At the right time, the sound of the doorbell came. Why did Ning frown slightly? I don''t know who it is? She put down the hair dryer, walked over and looked through the cat''s eyes Li Yunze leaned lazily on the door, and her face was where she could see. Why would you rather smile and lean gently against the door without opening the door or talking. Seeing that no one came to open the door, Li Yunze wondered why he didn''t come back after Ning and Jin shaosi left?! Thinking, he rang the doorbell again. "I won''t open it. I''m so angry with you!" Why should Ning curl her lips? Thinking of Li Yunze''s "attitude" at that time, she felt that she had to be angry in order to cooperate with the performance. "He Yining, if you don''t open the door again, I''ll leave..." Suddenly, Li Yunze''s voice came. Not big or small, just behind the door, he Yining can hear it. Why did Ning stand up straight? He didn''t understand. How did he feel... He knew she was by the door? Li Yunze doesn''t know, just by feeling. "He Yining!" Li Yunze shouted again and looked sideways at the direction of the cat''s eye. "One minute, I''ll give you two choices... Either open the door yourself or I''ll break in." "Your hand is used to hold the scalpel, not to unlock..." he Yining said with a smile, "I''d like to see how you break in!" Li Yunze smiled, "Hey, you let me at the door like this. How do you feel that a jealous wife won''t let her husband go to bed?!" "Teng" once, why Ning''s face turned red. "Li Yunze, this is the family building..." why would you rather gnash your teeth? "You let the neighbors hear it and let me go out?" "It''s just right not to go out, waiting for me to spoil you in bed every day..." Li Yunze said with a little indifference and even intensified banter. "..." he Yining was so angry that he gritted his teeth and said, "just talk nonsense outside. I won''t open the door. It depends on how you come in, hum!" With that, why did Ning turn angrily into it, plug in the hair dryer and start blowing his hair. There was a "buzzing" sound inside. Li Yunze lowered his eyes, and there was no choice but to spoil him because of his love. He Yining looked back at the door while blowing. She didn''t hear the sound of the door lock because of the sound of the hair dryer. When Li Yunze opened the door and walked in calmly, she opened her mouth slightly because of surprise. Even the hair dryer forgot to move and kept blowing a place. "Li Yunze, how did you get in?" He Yining waited until Li Yunze closed the door and suddenly reacted, "when did you learn to unlock?!" Li Yunze''s mouth moistened and slowly raised his hand Why Ning looked subconsciously and saw that he had a key in his hand. In that way, it was all her family''s! Turn off the hair dryer, why would you rather go forward "Why do you have the key to my house?" He Yining wanted to grab the key while Li Yunze was unprepared. It''s a pity that Yunze''s hand was raised when he Ning stole her mind. "When did you have the key to my house?" He Yining bared his teeth and asked. Li Yunze indifferently put the key into his trouser pocket and said with a smile, "I took it last time!" "..." why did Ning twitch in the corner of his mouth, "since you have the key, why do you ring the doorbell? What do you mean?" "Always make a show!" Li Yunze circled he Yining''s waist and pulled her to himself, "why, are you angry?" "Am I not obvious?" Why would you rather pick your eyebrows. Li Yunze frowned slightly, looked at he Yining carefully, nodded, "I see..." "How are you going to appease me?" Why Ning PI said with a smile, "Li Yunze, I''m really curious. What do you want from Qu Weiwei? Why should she misunderstand that our relationship has become a frozen model?" "Guess?!" Li Yunze''s voice was a little ambiguous and tight. He Yining felt that his face was a little red. "I''m serious. Don''t... Start talking to him!" "Where did you start to talk to him, huh?" Li Yunze''s eyes were deep and his voice was a little hoarse "..." he Yining twitched at the corner of his blushing mouth, "Hey, I''m still angry!" "Well, so you extinguish the fire for me..." Li Yunze''s voice was burning under the ambiguity, "I''ll calm you down." Li Yunze''s action made he Yining''s face redder, "hooligan!" "Well, you must be a hooligan!" Li Yunze kissed he Yining. His voice was low and dull. It was madness caused by lust. On the sofa, two people dyed the beautiful scenery of one room. He Yining thinks that Li Yunze is a master of flirting Her brain was starved of oxygen under his caress and attack. Therefore, many problems have forgotten to think. For example, she wants to ask Li Yunze what he wants to do "Yining, you don''t have to do so much..." Li Yunze blew his hair to Yining after a round. "At that time, you should be able to avoid it?" "Huh?" He Yining didn''t understand the dress. Li Yunze sighed, "why did you let her put you in such an environment?" He said, a little angry, "Yining, I don''t want to see others say you!" Chapter 1382 He Yining was silent, then raised the corners of his mouth and said with a smile, "I told you that my acting skills are great!" Li Yunze''s eyes are full of heartache, which is a kind of self blame and regret. What I didn''t see before, now I think and see it carefully, and then I find... How wrong I was in the past. Many things, the eyes see is not the truth, but because I didn''t like her before, I chose to believe even if it''s not the truth "Li Yunze..." why would you rather have a soft mouth. "Huh?" Li Yunze''s voice answered slightly. He Yining turned and looked at him with a soft and firm smile, "I want to help you, that''s all." Even if she needs to make a fool of herself in front of Qu Weiwei, even if she will be pointed out. Love a person, there is no lower limit, there is no IQ She doesn''t think it''s a shameful and humiliating thing. After all, how many people can strengthen their love and never give up without hurting and framing others. She can! He Yining felt that this was her pride Even if everyone can''t understand. Li Yunze put down the hair dryer, took why Ning into his arms, gently rubbed her chin against the top of her hair, "sorry..." "You don''t have to say sorry to me, because it''s my choice." Listen, Yunze can''t do anything with me as long as he doesn''t have the habit of beating with Yunze in his heart Such he Yining makes Li Yunze feel more distressed, but unfortunately, he can''t tell her now, what is he for?! He will also be afraid of the death of uncle he and aunt he because of Yining and indirectly because of him. So... Cruel to him, even worse to Yining. Love that is not blessed is sad, but love that bears guilt is tragic! Even if we are firmly together, we can put it in the body with a poisonous insect, which will bite the people who bear it inadvertently at any time! If it''s fake... That''s the best. But if it''s true, let him bear it alone, so that Yining can just love him well in the second half of his life! ¡­¡­ Tan Zhonglang stood in the cellar, looking at the upcoming batch of wine, and gradually lost his mind. "Brother Lang, we''ve all sorted it out. Why don''t we go yet?" Asked a worker. Tan Zhonglang returned to his senses, nodded to the worker, put the red wine back on the shelf and turned away from the cellar. The night pervaded the whole vineyard, and the fresh smell of grape branches and leaves floated in the air, which is the unique smell of wine given by God Tan Zhonglang stretched out his hand, pulled down an almost black snake dragon pearl grape and put it into his mouth. At the moment when the taste buds spread, his eyes sank. With a deep sigh, Tan Zhonglang looked at this large vineyard and his mind was a little stagnant. The ringing of the mobile phone suddenly broke the silence in the open space. Tan Zhonglang took back his sight, took out his mobile phone, looked at the caller ID above, sighed again and picked it up "Weiwei, why haven''t you slept so late?" Qu Weiwei, holding a mobile phone in one hand and a red wine glass in the other hand, gently held her elbow holding the mobile phone, walked slowly to the balcony, and her vision fell in the distance. "The wine given to Feng by ACE today is what you said that day?" "Yes." Tan Zhonglang answered. Qu Weiwei scratched a sneer at the corner of her mouth, "Lang, thank you..." Tan Zhonglang''s face changed slightly. He couldn''t see it clearly next to the vine in the dark night. "Why don''t you talk?" Qu Weiwei put down her hand holding the goblet and leaned slightly lazily on the balcony. "Alas..." Tan Zhonglang sighed and walked slowly in the vineyard. "What do you want me to say?" "Everything is good. I just don''t want to see you silent." Qu Weiwei has some wayward openings. Tan Zhonglang''s eyes fell in front, "Weiwei, are you really happy now?" "Why am I not happy? I''m happy." Qu Weiwei gritted her teeth. Tan Zhonglang narrowed his eyes slightly, "just be happy..." "What do you mean, Alan?" Qu Weiwei suddenly stood up angrily, put the goblet on the table, and looked fiercely, "if you feel that helping me makes you uncomfortable, you can''t help!" "I don''t mean that..." Tan Zhonglang frowned. "It''s getting late. Let''s have a rest earlier!" "Well, you go to bed early, too." After Qu Weiwei finished, she took the lead in hanging up. She picked up the glass, shook it gently, and then poured a mouthful of the wine into her mouth The liquor spread through the taste buds and slipped into the throat. The taste was like feeling a certain mood, which made Qu Weiwei''s blood expand. Jin shaosi, which winery do you want to build? ha-ha! You want to help he Yining ha-ha! Qu Weiwei sneered a few times. In her sight, there was a malicious light of resentment. "He Yining, do not even think about the past..." Qu Weiwei gnashed her teeth. "Not only Li Yunze, but also everything of he family, I don''t want to see it again." Under the night sky, the breath full of resentment gradually drifted away. Who is happy, who is sad, or who can''t let go and self confinement Anyway, time is always the best to verify your joys and sorrows! Several days have passed since Feng Lao''s little party, and during this period, Jian Mo, who "died", came back. However, she still can''t remember that Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin live in the log structure villa designed by Jian Mo in Yueya Lake. For Li Ze, there''s nothing to say for a few days. It is finally confirmed that the most effective way to decompose silence is progesterone. And Jane Mo, pregnant! She was pregnant before she committed suicide. So now she will have a moment of soberness As long as you wait until the older the month of pregnancy, then silence will be solved without medicine. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze took the steamed egg out of the pot and looked at he Yining who was reading. "Come and eat!" "Oh, wait..." he Yining still has some questions to understand. Li Yunze shook his head and took the steamed egg to he Yining. He dug a piece with a spoon, blew it and handed it to her mouth Why Ning was stunned and looked up at Li Yunze, just in front of his smiling and deep line of sight, full of hot flames. Instinctively, he Yining opened his mouth slowly under such eyes He Yining feels very happy with the smoothness and aroma into his mouth. "Li Yunze..." "Huh?" Why did Ning zhe lower the corner of his mouth and slowly open his mouth: "I''m a little scared!" Chapter 1383 "What?" Li Yunze looked deeper and deeper. "I''m afraid that while acting, I''m affectionate... I''ll get schizophrenia!" He Yining suddenly laughed, his eyes full of intelligence. Li Yunze was stunned, shook his head, and took a spoonful of steamed eggs to he Yining''s mouth. "It''s all right, I''m a doctor, I''ll treat you!" Why should Ning simply put down the book and lean on Li Yunze with a coquettish anger, sniffing his breath and enjoying his feeding There seems to be a feeling that the years are quiet and good, and there is nothing else to ask for. In fact, what she just wanted to say was: she was afraid, and the acting became true in the end. What she calls "owning" is only a multicolored bubble. It will disappear in the end, even without any trace. He Yining was in a daze, with all the sudden thoughts of last night in his mind. That thought, full of anxiety, made her a little afraid. She felt that she had thought too much. After so many years of chasing, she finally got something. She was worried about gain and loss. "Dr. he, this is the examination report of 5 rooms and 2 beds..." the nurse came in and handed the report to he Yining. "Dr. Song asked me to send it to you." "OK, thank you!" He Yining took the report and looked through the checklists of two patients. This is a patient who just underwent surgery last week. Today''s report comes out. If there are no major problems, he can be ready to leave the hospital. Song Tianye has been busy recently. He Yining feels that he is in love. Think of this, why rather the corners of his mouth with a smile. Song Tianye was interested in her when she was at school. She didn''t feel it After all, she is a person who develops emotional intelligence too early. Now she is really happy to see that he can find his own happiness. After reading the examination report of two patients, he Yining went to the ward to explain some things. Looking at the time, it was almost time to get off work. She made a good record of the handover form, and the time was just around the corner. Now, although she doesn''t need to pick up one by one every day, she still goes to the normal class. The dean''s extra care for her has aroused some comments from other departments. Of course, there are also ugly words. Why don''t you care? Now she just wants to get her qualification certificate early, and then do what she likes and fill the medical vacancy of Li Yunze Later, together with Li Yunze, she simply took all the medical treatment. They couldn''t make a department! "What are you thinking, so happy?" Yan Miao couldn''t bear to see why he Ning. He Yining twisted the fans with chopsticks, "nothing, just waiting for the exam, some can''t wait..." "In other words, what is the situation between you and Li Yunze now?" Yan Miao frowned, "I really can''t understand you more and more. Say you broke up with him, and you don''t look like a sullen man. Can you say no... he seems to stick to Qu Weiwei all day again!" He Ning shrugged. "All I know is that he is right with me now." "Yes..." Yan Miao said with some unbearable, "he Yining, you brain, a pair of Li Yunze, it''s hard to work at any time." Why should I rather curl my lips, "I believe him!" Yan Miao sighed, "but I also believe Li Yunze in this." If you really want to talk to Qu Weiwei, there is no need to entangle with Yining. Originally, Li Yunze hated Yining and didn''t need to look like it at all. "Seriously..." yanmiao put down his chopsticks. "If you hadn''t been together before you found one by one, I can doubt that Li Yunze was with you because of one by one." "However, we were together first..." why did Ning pick his eyebrow and feel a little proud. Looking at why Ning is happy, yanmiao is also happy for her, but he is also a little worried. After all, Qu Weiwei, that scheming bitch, will do something. Who will know?! "Seriously, I''ve lived so long. It''s the first time I''ve seen such an ungrateful person as Qu Weiwei!" Yan Miao said angrily, "there''s no family. She can have today? Her conscience has been eaten by the dog. I thought everything came by herself!" "A man who is inferior to a dog, you don''t think it''s too much for yourself to carry it now." Speaking of Qu Weiwei''s ingratitude, he Yining is basically right to be indifferent after so many years. "Also, the dog at least knows loyalty!" He Yining just wanted to speak and looked up slightly when he saw Qu Weiwei and Du Peishan come in She helped her forehead and felt that it was really a narrow road for her enemies. How to eat, she always met Qu Weiwei. Feeling the breath of he Yining, yanmiao looked back and saw Qu Weiwei gesturing to Du Peishan and coming towards the two people "Haunted, really disgusting!" Yan Miao glanced coldly at his eyes. "Don''t let disgusting people affect your appetite, otherwise it''s not a joke!" He Yining said coldly when Qu Weiwei walked in, "I don''t understand. Why is someone so thick skinned!" "Because I want to brush the sense of existence..." yanmiao smiled coldly at the corners of her mouth. "Otherwise, if others can''t see her, she''s afraid she can''t eat this meal." "Yes, after all, some people eat by heart!" Why should Ning talk and look at Qu Weiwei standing by their table without expression. At this point, there are already a lot of people in the restaurant. However, no one will pay attention to this table. They just think it''s a friend who says hello. "Yining, if I were you, I would never be in the mood to meet me here at this moment!" Qu Weiwei picked her eyebrows and ignored yanmiao''s words. "After all, some things, even if you don''t think about them seriously, are real." "I''m not interested in what you want to say. Can you leave me alone?" Why Ning glanced coldly, "it''s really disgusting." Qu Weiwei didn''t seem to hear the sarcasm of he Yining. She just took out her mobile phone from her bag and turned on an audio "If not one by one, do you think I would be with her?" Li Yunze''s voice came. Suddenly, yanmiao and he Yining''s face suddenly changed Qu Weiwei took back her mobile phone and proudly appreciated why Yining''s changing face. "Audio can be synthesized word by word..." why Ning sneered, "Qu Weiwei, do you think I will believe what you have in hand?!" "Believe it or not..." Qu Weiwei smiled. "I just want to kindly remind you that Yunze is afraid to return the custody of one by one..." After appreciating why nington''s face changed, Qu Weiwei felt that it was perfect today, "I won''t disturb you two for dinner!" "Shit, bitch!" Yan Miao immediately clenched his teeth, "a pair of bitches!" She looked at he Yining. "Yining, don''t tell me, you still believe that bitch Li Yunze!" Why rather stare at Qu Weiwei''s back and don''t answer Yan Miao, but say in a low voice: "no, I have to question Li Yunze..." Chapter 1384 "Huh? What?" Yanmiao didn''t react. Why should Ning have grabbed the bag and walked out Yan hurried out to settle the account with Miao. Qu Weiwei naturally didn''t miss this scene. She took out her mobile phone and sent a text message to Meng Yi: don''t come in yet. Follow him to see what happened. Meng Yi had just parked the car and was about to get to the door when he received a text message from Qu Weiwei. He raised his eyes and saw why Ning and yanmiao got into a taxi together. He hurried to the side of the road. There was a passenger in the car. He hurried to sit on it. "Master, follow the car in front..." Meng Yi said, drawing out two hundred yuan bills and putting them in front. When the driver saw the money and said "haole", he kept up with he Yining''s car. In front, he Yining had no eagerness and carefree look just now in the restaurant. "I said, what''s the situation?" Yan Miao frowned and asked, "what''s more, you don''t seem to be angry at all?" "Why should I be angry?" He Yining looked strange, looked at yanmiao wrinkling her eyebrows, and immediately shrugged, "who is Qu Weiwei? Have I suffered less losses?" Yan Miao seemed to realize something. "Is it true that her words were synthesized?" "Who knows if it''s synthetic, but if she listens to me, she must be unkind." He Yining had a clear face and a sneer on his face. "Then you hurriedly said you were going to question, which made me almost lift the table." Yanmiao couldn''t stand turning his eyes. He Yining took a deep breath. In fact, just now her reaction was instinctive, but why did she suddenly want to do that? At this moment, it''s the subconscious hope to cooperate with Li Yunze. "I don''t believe Li Yunze would say that. Even if he said it, it was under certain circumstances, not the truth." Why is Ning''s voice firm. Yanmiao really doesn''t want to attack he Yining, but her feelings for Li Yunze have become crazy and blind, in case "I know what you''re thinking!" He Yining looked at yanmiao, "you think, if it''s true, I don''t want to believe it." "If only you knew." Yan Miao sighed deeply, "seriously, I''m afraid it''s because of one by one. You''ll..." She was a little hesitant. He Ning smiled and shook his head. "In fact, even if he is with me because of one by one, I am also happy." "...." yanmiao twitched at the corner of his mouth, "yes, I forgot. You have no lower limit for him." "So, Qu Weiwei''s recording is completely meaningless. Li Yunze knows it very well. Naturally, there''s no need to say it specifically, isn''t it?" He Yining took back his sight, and there was an indescribable sweetness in the depths of his eyes. She didn''t tell yanyanming what happened between her and Li Yunze. However, if you experience some things with your heart, you will find out who should believe them. Qu Weiwei, if she put it before, she would be really sad after listening to that recording. But now, no! Because she has no reason to believe Qu Weiwei instead of Li Yunze. Suddenly Why Ning frowned slightly and his sight fell in the reversing mirror. Just now, it seemed that the car had been behind them. Although this was the main road, maybe it was in the same direction, but I don''t know why, she felt as if she was following her. That''s a woman''s sixth sense He Yining took back his sight, looked back and didn''t say anything. He just paid attention all the way. Sure enough, when they arrived at Huakang, the taxi also stopped at the roadside of Huakang. Although, it''s normal to come to the hospital! He Yining thought deeply in his eyes and paid the fare to get off. As she walked to the hospital, she dialed Li Yunze''s phone As soon as the phone was connected, Li Yunze came out of the inpatient department building while taking out his mobile phone. Why should Ning just hang up the phone? Under the attitude that yanmiao can''t respond to her, she has gone angrily "Why are you here?" Li Yunze frowned slightly, and there was not much expression on his face. "Li Yunze, do you really think I have to be you? Do you think I can''t live without you in my life?" Why would you rather gnash your teeth and ask. Li Yunze frowned slightly. He naturally knew that he Yining was acting at the moment, but did he need to come to the hospital? "What do you mean?" Li Yunze thought and said coldly. Fortunately, it was time for dinner and there was no one at door of the inpatient department. Because of this, he Yining''s "clamoring" is also unscrupulous. "Does it matter whose child it is?" Why would she rather gnash her teeth and look at Li Yunze with disappointment and grief on her face? She turned her head and hissed coldly, "Li Yunze, don''t tell me what you do because of a child..." Why should Ning''s arrogant and sarcastic words, like a needle, pierced Li Yunze''s heart. He told Qu Weiwei yesterday that he was with Yining because of one by one. Now Yining came to "question" him Sure enough, many things were intentional. "If so, don''t embarrass yourself. I don''t have to ask you..." he said angrily, "in this world, I''d rather not ask you!" Li Yunze looked at such he Yining. If he didn''t know she was acting in advance, he would almost think that what she said was serious. Even, some uneasiness was spreading in his heart. After all, now we are desperate. If Jin shaosi has a little mind outside cooperation, Yining is likely to But the arrow is on the line and has to be sent. "I don''t care what you do," said Li Yunze, seeing a figure flash across the corner. "If you want to go with other men, I have no right to take care of you... But I want to take back the custody of one by one!" "You want custody one by one, you dream!" Why should Ning bite his teeth and say that? After staring hard at Li Yunze, he turned and left, "Yan Yan, let''s go." "Ah?" Yanmiao felt that her brain capacity was not enough. She looked at Li Yunze and he Yining. "Oh", and then he Yining left Huakang hospital. Li Yunze didn''t move. He just stood where he was, his eyes crossed with anger. Until he Yining walked out so far, he coldly raised his steps and went to the parking lot. Meng Yi sticks it to the wall, looks at he Yining who has gone far and Li Yunze who gets on the bus, takes out his mobile phone and dials Qu Weiwei''s number. "Huh?" Qu Weiwei opened her mouth lightly and didn''t say much. "He Yining came to Huakang to find Li Yunze, and the two had a quarrel." Meng Yi said, "I''m a little away from you. I don''t really hear it, but I seem to hear something about custody?!" Chapter 1385 "Oh?" Qu Weiwei heard it and immediately her eyes overflowed with a smile. Sure enough, he Yining is as stupid as before. If others say something, as long as it has something to do with Li Yunze, he will have no brain. "Come and have dinner. I''ve ordered." Qu Weiwei said. "Well, good!" Meng Yi looks at the car Li Yunze left before turning around and walking outside the hospital. Back to the previous restaurant, Meng Yi went to Qu Weiwei''s table. "Meng Yi, have you stopped for too long?" Seeing Meng Yi coming, Du Peishan said with some laughter, "is it difficult to find a parking space near here?" Meng Yi looked at Qu Weiwei, then smiled and said, "I just met an acquaintance and talked for a while." "Do you still have acquaintances in China?" Du Peishan was a little surprised. Meng Yi sat down and said, "Miss, I''ve only been abroad for a few years. I was in China before my university, okay?!" "Yes, I forgot..." Du Peishan responded, "mainly when I knew you, you were abroad and had some subconsciousness." Qu Weiwei and Meng Yi looked at each other, and their eyes moved. They didn''t mention Li Yunze and he Yining, but talked about the customized sales channels of Xia Xiao. "Mrs. Feng ordered more than half and less than half. When you sell them abroad, you sell them all." Qu Weiwei smiled and said, "although she didn''t earn as much as expected, it''s also considerable." "Seriously this time, I really want to thank Li Yunze..." Du Peishan said with a smile, "Vivian, he is very kind to you." Qu Weiwei couldn''t help but raise her mouth. She was very happy when she thought that Li Yunze was so busy because she was cheated by Xia Xiao and helped her find a way. What''s more, now he Yining''s relationship with him is going to be stiff. Isn''t that right? God can''t stand his good luck, so she should pull away what she wants most! Thinking, Qu Weiwei''s appetite is much better. "This time, I want to endorse Ho''s winery..." On the TV of the restaurant, there is an interview program. The interview character is like old Feng. Because Xu was too sensitive to the surname "he", the sound in Mingming''s restaurant was slightly noisy, but Qu Weiwei heard the news at the first time. She subconsciously looked at the TV and saw old Feng holding a bottle of wine to be launched by Ho''s winery recently, talking with the host. "I''m lucky to taste it before it''s on the market..." Feng said with a smile. "In addition to retaining Ho''s special fermentation, now new elements are added. I can say that over time, the wine of Ho''s winery can be taken to the French Wine Festival..." "This is a high evaluation," said the host with a smile. "Although Mr. Feng has only recently fallen in love with wine, he has deep attainments in this field and rarely sees which winery you endorse. It seems that the new products launched by he''s winery really suit your heart." "Yes..." On the interview program, Mr. Feng spent four or five minutes endorsing the wine of why''s winery. It is conceivable that a gust of wind will blow next, allowing Ho''s winery to harvest a large order without any publicity. Qu Weiwei''s eyes were full of cold breath, and her hand holding chopsticks was tightly clenched. "I''ve heard gossip about ho''s winery before," Du Peishan looked at the TV. "He said that he family fell down before and was bought but didn''t do it. I didn''t expect to get up again now. Sure enough, it''s backed by a big tree. As long as you have money, you can smash it..." Du Peishan did not make complaints about Qu Weiwei''s face. He said, "the first man in Brunei seems to have taken a look at the potential of consumption in China. I''m afraid I want to explore the way with the chateau, and turn back......? Meng Yi gently kicks Du Peishan under the table and signals her to stop talking. Du Peishan was stunned. Only then did she see Qu Weiwei''s face was bad and remembered something that had not been confirmed positively. Qu Weiwei had a happy meal, but because of Feng''s interview, she was holding her breath and felt a little uncomfortable. "Take you back?" Meng Yi asked. "Well, I''ll just take the subway back." Du Peishan is not a person without eyes. Qu Weiwei made a "um" sound and went to the car with Meng Yi. After getting on the bus, Meng Yi looks at Qu Weiwei. "Li Yunze and why Ning fell out. It''s exactly what you want to see. Why are you unhappy?" "Nothing!" Qu Weiwei said with some irritability. "Weiwei, I advise you not to go against Jin shaosi too much." Meng Yi drove the car and said, "it''s definitely not easy for that man to change from a winemaker to the president of Jin''s group." Qu Weiwei didn''t speak, but her body language was obviously dissatisfied. Meng Yi glanced at her, "I know what you think. What family is your nightmare. It''s pressing you like a mountain, so you''re afraid of what family is up now..." "Meng Yi, can you stop talking?" Qu Weiwei became more and more agitated. "If I don''t say it, do I think it doesn''t exist?" Meng Yi said coldly, "I''ll help you get up from abroad. If you say you want to return home, I''ll return home to take care of you..." he paused. "You''re too radical many times." Qu Weiwei is silent again. In the face of Meng Yi, she is unable to refute many times. He knows everything about her. If he doesn''t help her all the time, she will feel that this person is too dangerous. Speaking of danger Qu Weiwei helped her forehead and rubbed it. She was a little worried. Tan Zhonglang didn''t help her. There was no problem with the red wine, so Feng endorsed it... Doesn''t he want to help her anymore?! ¡­¡­ "Feng Laogang just called me," Jin shaosi looked at Tan Zhonglang who was looking at the temperature of the wine cellar. "I like the wine you came out this time." "Really?" Tan Zhonglang smiled, "it shows that my craft has not regressed." "Alan, sometimes I wonder, if I hadn''t left at the beginning and no family had fallen down, would we become the two heroes in the brewing industry now?" Jin shaosi said with a smile. Tan Zhonglang looked sideways at Jin shaosi, then lowered his eyes and smiled. "Seriously, you''re not like you before..." Tan Zhonglang took back his eyes. "In the past, except for the young lady, everyone else was just indifferent and basically didn''t laugh." "And you?" Jin shaosi looked at Tan Zhonglang and said, "do you still have ideas about Qu Weiwei?" Tan Zhonglang''s action was slightly sluggish. After a few seconds, he resumed his action. His mouth was filled with astringency and adjusted a bottle of red wine. "Ace, some time will change, some will not change." Jin shaosi''s eyes were deeper and showed two pure lights. At the same time, youyou asked, "what''s the feeling for who?" Chapter 1386 Tan Zhonglang looked at Jin shaosi. The two men looked at each other in the dim light, as if they wanted to see each other thoroughly. "Ace, what do you suspect?" Tan Zhonglang pointed out his words directly. "I don''t doubt anything." Jin shaosi said faintly, "I just want to pull Ho''s winery up. This is a feeling... Ace, don''t you have such a feeling?" Tan Zhonglang looked back and said without a positive answer: "so, with the wine for old Feng..." He went to another wine rack, looked at the temperature and humidity meter, and slowly said, "these technologies were learned in He Jia. Although I added a lot of my understanding in the later stage, people can''t forget their roots." Tan Zhonglang looked at Jin shaosi, who was still standing in place, and smiled, "in a few days, the Shiraz flavor will come out of the cellar. I''m sure it will amaze your tongue." "Oh?" Jin shaosi put a smile on one side of his lip, "wait and see." After a pause, he looked at the time. "I''ll go first. I''ll go back to Brunei tomorrow. I''m estimated to be back in two or three days. Call me if you have something." "Good!" Tan Zhonglang watched Jin shaosi leave and continued to tidy up the wine in the cellar. He gradually cleaned out some defective products left by his previous home, but left some that could be washed into the warehouse temporarily. The mobile phone vibrated in her pocket. Tan Zhonglang took it out and saw that it was Qu Weiwei. She sighed deeply and didn''t pick it up until the line was about to break "Tan Zhonglang, what did you promise me?" As soon as the phone was connected, Qu Weiwei''s angry voice came. Tan Zhonglang didn''t speak. Then Qu Weiwei''s voice came again, "you speak!" "Ace has doubted me." Tan Zhonglang looked ahead and said calmly, "this time, I''m lucky I didn''t do it, otherwise..." he narrowed his eyes slightly, "... Weiwei, do you think I can be so calm now?" "I don''t care!" Qu Weiwei''s voice was sharp. "You didn''t do it. Why give me hope?" "What would you do if I didn''t say that to you?" Tan Zhonglang frowned, "Weiwei, what happened in those years has happened, which can''t be avoided. If you don''t think about it now, you can really get what you want?" "I don''t need you to preach..." Qu Weiwei said coldly and hung up the phone directly. Tan Zhonglang listened to the hang up sound in her mobile phone and sighed again. After installing her mobile phone, she continued to tidy up the wine in the wine cellar. Originally, he could not refuse her. He and ACE have been separated for so many years, people will change He will guess whether ace has changed now and before. Naturally, ace will also guess him, won''t he?! ¡­¡­ Paradise night. Li Yunze lay lazily on the sofa, stepped on the front tea table with one foot, and his hand holding red wine gently hung on his bent thighs. The faint and dim light reflected on the wine glass reflects the intoxicating light. At the same time, it is like attracting vampire blood. With the shaking, there is danger everywhere. With age and experience, people will always be less reckless than when they were young, less meaningless and more profound. "Does it matter whose child it is? Li Yunze, don''t tell me what you do because of a child..." If it was a play, it was like a needle stuck in Li Yunze''s heart. It seems to remind something, and it seems to indicate something Raise his hand and Li Yunze pours the wine into his mouth. Slowly, the liquor scratched down his throat Obviously bitter and astringent, but Li Yunze was not in a hurry to swallow quickly, as if he wanted to feel that taste. Thank you for your steadfast, and thank you for my love If he can, he really doesn''t want to use this way. The parties can''t find what happened in those years. Now the only clue is tan Zhonglang''s words, but they don''t know whether they are true or false. But whether true or false, I''m afraid things were not simple. Is it intentional or unintentional... Let Yining know?! Thinking, Li Yunze''s mobile phone rang. He took it out and saw that it was Gu Beichen. He picked it up, "Beichen?" "Come to the hospital!" Gu Beichen''s concise voice came, "I brought Mo''er." Li Yunze was stunned. After Gu Beichen hung up the phone, he suddenly reacted and hurried away from heaven night to Huakang. Jane Mo got pregnant when she just came back and asked a Xueba who studied traditional Chinese medicine to pretend to be human body painting to approach her and feel her pulse. Now just hide Shi Shaoqin''s eyes and ears and determine Jian Mo''s pregnancy Then, silence is likely to be solved. ¡­¡­ Since Jane returned to Los Angeles, Chen Yu has always had something to do. His eyelids will jump. "Mr. Chen," the director of Shangxie is Tang Yitong''s closed student... "The Secretary continued to report on the blockbuster that China entertainment media is about to start," but I heard that his temper is the same as that of Tang, he won''t see the coffee position, just whether it''s suitable or not, and may directly hold the intern. " Chen Yu''s eyelids jump even more. It''s a sense of crisis developed in the Chen family since childhood. It seems that someone is "talking" about him behind his back! "President Chen?" Seeing that Chen Yu didn''t listen, the secretary looked at him curiously. Chen Yu waved his hand to show that he was fine. "No matter who she likes or what kind of coffee, I only ask that the male and female must be the contracted artists of Huaye." "OK, I''ll discuss it tomorrow." "Yes." Chen Yu answered, got up, took the car key and left Huaye. All the way back, his uneasy mood deepened. Chen Yu called Li Jinxi, "honey, are you home?" "Just got home..." Li Jinxi put down his key, "how about you?!" Hearing that Li Jinxi had nothing to do, Chen Yu felt that he might have been a little nervous recently because of Gu Beichen. "I''ll go back too..." "OK, I''ll wait for you!" "Well, see you later." Chen hung up and felt a little nervous. ¡­¡­ Why did Ning take a bath and send a text message to Li Yunze: can''t you come tonight? Li Yunze replied after a while: I just returned to the hospital. Beichen brought Jian Mo for examination. Ning asked: how was she? Don''t you really remember Beichen? As Li Yunze walked into the building, he replied: temporarily, don''t worry, huh? Li Yunze pressed the elevator: I don''t think I''ll be there at night. Go to bed early. He Yining didn''t want to delay Li Yunze and replied: don''t worry about me, you don''t have to be too tired, love you! With the sound of "Ding", Li Yunze entered the elevator and pressed the floor. After thinking about it, he still sent a text message: Yining, I''m not with you one by one, although I''m surprised by the existence of one by one. Chapter 1387 He Yining looked at Li Yunze''s text message and gradually smiled at the corners of his mouth: I know, I believe you, so I won''t doubt you. Silly Ning: you go and get busy. I''ll read the book and go to bed! Li Yunze replied at the moment when the elevator arrived: OK, good night! When the elevator door opened, Li Yunze strode out with his mobile phone. Seeing Gu Beichen, he kept walking and asked, "where are people?" "Sleep......" Gu Beichen''s voice showed a touch of forbearance. Li Yunze and Gu Beichen grew up together and experienced the process of his evolution from a sunny boy to a dark Satan. He knows him and naturally knows his forbearance at the moment. Time passed slowly in Jane Mo''s sleep. Li Yunze and Gu Beichen are talking about things that may need attention outside. After all, Shi Shaoqin is in Los Angeles now. That person is abnormal and can do anything. Li Yunze doesn''t know why Shi Shaoqin has such a strong possessive desire for Beichen. If his sexual orientation is wrong, it doesn''t feel like I felt as if I wanted to pull Beichen into the darkness and degenerate with him. Jane Mo was awakened with a start before long. Susan just covered her gently. Li Yunze looked at Jian Mo like a frightened bird, and his eyes were heavy. But now, it''s not the time to think about this. He asked the nurse to go to the obstetrics and gynecology department, called Dr. Ge up and quickly checked the Jane foam system. "The situation is temporary..." Li Yunze''s voice can''t say whether it''s dignified or relaxed, "... It''s OK." Gu Beichen frowned, "what do you mean it''s OK to see for a while?" "Thirteen weeks of pregnancy, everything is normal." Li Yunze said slowly, "but you also know that Jane Mo was injected with medicine. How about the child? You have to wait for 4D to see." There are not too many words, but Gu Beichen doesn''t hold much hope After being silent for a while, Li Yunze asked, "are you sure you want Jane Mo to recover her memory recently?" Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but turned around again and fell on the night light in the yard Yunze''s worry he understands that 80% of the children may not be able to stay because of drugs. Yunze wants to give birth to this child after the progesterone hormone breaks down silence However, when Mo''er''s memory is restored, how can he not know that he is pregnant? If the child is gone, how will she bear it?! Gu Beichen closed his eyes, scolded himself and a sharp blade, constantly scraping his heart, which made him suffocate. Mo''er has been married to him for two years. Although he is not bad to her, he is not as good as husband and wife. Missed another four and a half years and let her bring up Xiao Jie alone. It''s not easy to be together, but the good days haven''t been long. She is suffering because of his past Li Yunze stepped forward and patted Gu Beichen on the shoulder, "it will always be good!" Gu Beichen slowly opens his eyes. Mo Tong already knows that he can''t see to the end. ¡­¡­ The next day, it was sunny in Los Angeles. He Yining went to the office to read after patrolling the room with several doctors. Now back to surgery, in addition to daily, she doesn''t need to go to the clinic. She can spend a lot of time reading. However, today she is a little restless and always thinking about Jane mo. When the mobile phone rang, why would you rather take back your thoughts and take out your mobile phone? Seeing that it was Jin shaosi, he smiled and picked it up: "have you arrived at the airport?" "Well, ready to pass." Don''t go to the VIP passage with Jin Ning if it''s all right. Why don''t you go out with Jin Ning for a few days He Yining smiled, "afraid I''ll be robbed?" "It''s really possible..." Jin shaosi''s eyes were deep. Why Ning Zhe''s mouth smiled and his eyes bent because of Jin shaosi''s slightly funny words, "don''t worry, I''ll protect myself. You can handle your affairs with confidence." "I wish I could rest assured..." Jin shaosi seemed to say something quietly. He Yining didn''t hear clearly, but he could guess. "I will try my best to reduce going out, so you can handle your affairs with confidence." Why not guarantee. Jin shaosi sighed secretly, answered, explained a few words, and then hung up the phone. He was not worried about the danger of Yining, but that she would be injured because of Li Yunze. Jin shaosi laughed at himself. What is he doing? Even subconsciously began to push Yining to Li Yunze? Jin shaosi frowned and looked ahead with a pair of eyes, some deep and bottomless He Yining is really obedient. In the two days when Jin shaosi is away, she will go home after work every day. When Li Yunze doesn''t sneak in, she will read a book. If she sneaks in, it''s natural to have a cloud and rain to let each other talk about their feelings in the dark under the integration. "I read the report of Beichen and Jian mo..." He Yining thought of the picture of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo dancing tango in Los Angeles square. He was a little envious. The little hand gently drew Li Yunze''s chest, which made Li Yunze''s body jump uncontrollably because of her provocation. "They really deserve..." why Ning chumou said. "Su Junli''s piano, Beichen and Jian Mo''s Tango in Los Angeles square are really beautiful... They are as beautiful as fairy tales." "Why don''t I take you to a dance, too?" Li Yunze pulled down he Yining''s hand and let her hold it. "Waltz? Cha cha? Or tango?" "No new ideas..." why do I make complaints about it? "Li Yunze, is it not enough for you to have new ideas in the scalpel and to have other brains?" Li Yunze was trained. He was stunned at first. Then he turned over and pressed why Ning under him, "more and more promising, ah?!" He Yining smiled pleasantly, "it''s necessary. I don''t know on my nose?!" "All I know is to move forward bravely..." Li Yunze said, already pulling off he Yining''s hand and letting her fall into his world again. "Yining, give me some time and I will deal with a lot of things." "Well, good!" "Yining, you can only love me, you know?!" "Well, good!" "He Yining, remember what you promised me today, you can only love me..." "From the age of ten to the present, it has been engraved in the bones and can''t be forgotten!" "Well, that''s about the same..." The night, under the beautiful scenery, becomes ambiguous. The air is full of love, which is the best expression between lovers. If at this moment, Li Yunze knows that some things are beyond his control, he must not care about the so-called truth, but just want to be with he Yining Even if the time is short, it is better than the opposite indifference. Chapter 1388 Time, the news in Los Angeles is overwhelming, but in the past That night in Los Angeles square, Su Jun left the piano, and Gu Beichen and Jian Mo''s Tango became the brand that many infatuated men and women couldn''t shake in their hearts? How many singles admire and yearn for?! These envious people often only see the superficial happiness, and how many people can see Gu Beichen and Jian Mo''s efforts for happiness, the madness step by step, and what they bear?! Of course, the envy or emotion of others has nothing to do with Gu Beichen and Jian mo. Jian Mo can remember him. For Gu Beichen, this is the happiest thing in this period of time. However, under such happiness, Shi Shaoqin always exists as a time bomb. Even if the surface is calm, it does not mean that there is no undercurrent surge. Chen Yu stood in front of the office window on the top floor of Huaye with his hands in his pockets. Looking at the rain outside, his eyes gradually deepened He has been "separated" from the Chen family for many years. From small to large, he doesn''t like to grow and struggle in that environment. Perhaps, because there is a big brother above, he can also arbitrarily remove all the responsibilities he should shoulder Chen Yu narrowed her eyes slowly and sighed slowly with the corners of her mouth gently closed. But many things, you think you are separated from, in fact, you have always been in that circle. It''s like blood. Even if you let go of the old blood, it will regenerate! Gu Beichen has never been a kind person. He came to him as the Chen family for Jian mo. he can understand. But Chen Yu''s eyes almost narrowed into a gap, showing a faint emotion. There is entanglement, fear, helplessness and understanding Yes, crazy! Help Gu Beichen learn from the Chen family that Shi Shaoqin suddenly left Los Angeles because of the poor harvest of golden Sanjiao this year and because there seems to be something wrong inside the Mo palace. I''m afraid he can''t attend to Gu Beichen in the near future. Hang your eyes and sigh gently. Chen Yu took out his hand, turned around, took the car key and left the office Shi Shaoqin had no time to attend to Gu Beichen, and Gu Beichen naturally wouldn''t come to him. Well, there are some things he should not worry about in the near future. ¡­¡­ After he Yining applied for the qualification examination, he stood on the porch and looked at the light rain outside. The scorching heat of the past few days, under this rain, the whole city of Los Angeles is much refreshing, which makes people feel comfortable to slow down Open the umbrella, he Yining didn''t take a car, just strolling in the rain, feeling the sound of raindrops beating the umbrella, full of romantic expectations "One, two, three... Seventy-five, seventy-six, seventy-seven, seventy... Eight!" Why rather count your steps to the intersection and look up, it''s a red light. She smiled at the corner of her mouth and looked across the road. There was only a couple waiting for the red light. The boy gently hugged the girl''s shoulder and the girl hugged the boy''s waist. I don''t know what to say to him. The girl gently twisted her body in a coquettish way Why Ning''s mouth smiled more open. She suddenly thought that if she stopped at this moment and raised her eyes, Li Yunze stood opposite with an umbrella. When she looked over, her mouth held his usual smile and looked at her Alas, at that moment, she could think of how happy she would be. I wondered why I would rather look at the traffic lights for more than a minute because it was a big intersection. He Yining took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to Li Yunze: Li Yunze, I''m at the intersection right now. Suddenly, I''m thinking how happy I would be if I could see you The text message soon replied: silly Ning, look at the second lane opposite you. Why Ning frowned slightly. He didn''t understand the meaning of this sentence, but subconsciously looked into the second lane The glass of the driver''s seat was put down, and Li Yunze''s face with a faint smile was slightly exposed. Under the rain and fog, it was hazy and unreal, but it was him He Yining immediately sighed and smiled. His nose was sour and his eyes immediately turned red. If this is a coincidence, then she is also grateful. What can compare with that? You want to see him at this moment. He''s right opposite you?! Li Yunze looked at he Yining from a distance. He had seen her since she stood by the roadside But he didn''t expect that his silly Ning would appear opposite her at this moment. "Drop, drop, drop..." When the green light came on, Li Yunze shook his mobile phone towards he Yining and started the car. At the same time, he also raised his feet. After crossing the intersection, he Yining''s mobile phone rang She looked at the words "Li Yunze", and her heart was warm. Pick it up and put it in your ear "Why not take a bus?" Li Yunze gently, with a helpless voice of drowning. "Lose weight, so walk." He Yining deliberately said, "you said to give me the nutritional meal list, but you are too busy to care about it. I can only walk." Li Yunze smiled. Of course, he knew that he Yining was deliberately saying this at the moment. He was completely coquettish. "Sometimes I go to take you to exercise in the evening. That''s healthier." "..." he Yining''s footsteps paused, "hooligan!" "Yes." Li Yunze responded to the stabbing. Why should I smile at the corners of my mouth? It''s sweet from the bottom of my heart, "what are you doing?" "Go to the medicine factory." While Li Yunze answered, he suddenly turned from the intersection in front and turned the front of the car. Li Yunze and he Yining talked like this. When he Yining found that he had two more intersections to Shuya, Li Yunze had not arrived at the pharmaceutical factory. "Haven''t you arrived at the pharmaceutical factory yet?" Why rather stopped, "you drive, how should you arrive?" "Yes." Li Yunze answered softly. He Yining tightened his eyebrow again and said with some guilt: "I shouldn''t drag you all the time and delay your business..." Li Yunze suddenly smiled when he listened to why Ning muttered, "but how can I listen to my tone? It doesn''t seem like guilt at all. It seems that I''m a little proud because I didn''t stop you from delaying my business." "Can you hear that?" Why do you rather pick your eyebrows? "Li Yunze, I don''t know. I thought you had a crush on me for a long time, so you knew me so well!" "Well, it''s possible!" Li Yunze answered with a little indifference. He Yining was amused by him, "shameless... Upside down black and white!" "Yining, are you happy now?" Li Yunze asked softly. Why Ning nodded subconsciously, "happy, very happy..." she smiled, "Li Yunze, I''ve never been happy, even if we turn light into dark now." "I''m happy..." Li Yunze''s voice came jokingly, "look back!" Chapter 1389 "Look back?" He Yining wondered and suddenly turned back. I saw the drizzle on the roadside, under the elms. I saw at the intersection that the car driven by Li Yunze was parked there Under the windshield, there was Li Yunze''s smiling face. At that moment, why should I rather feel that I must be an illusion. She blinked her eyes. When she was sure that what she saw was real, she couldn''t tell what it was like at this moment. It''s like being filled with something that makes you feel no emotion except moving. Step by step Li Yunze hung up the phone in good time and opened the door. A black umbrella was opened, and then a long leg wrapped in dark suit pants came out. Why rather walk forward step by step, it''s like slow motion. She didn''t dare to walk too fast or even run over Even if she has determined that it is real, she is afraid that everything in front of her will suddenly disappear. "Silly rather......" Li Yunze smiled at the corners of his mouth. "Shouldn''t you run over now?" Why should Ning''s nose forget it all at once, and the eyes are filled with water mist in a red moment. The umbrella fell to the ground. Why did Ning rush into Li Yunze''s arms, hug his waist hard, and said with a choking voice: "didn''t you go to the pharmaceutical factory? Why are you behind me? Have you been following me? Li Yunze, you have been following me, and you don''t tell me..." "Aren''t you going to walk to lose weight?" Li Yunze held an umbrella in one hand and he Yining in the other, and said with a smile in his mouth, "in order to supervise whether you really walk, I''m also very hard." The joking words are spoiled. Why would you rather lift your eyes, look at Li Yunze with wet eyes, and slightly toot your mouth. Don''t say how coquettish and angry you are. "Tut Tut, I''m moved..." Li Yunze said with a smile. "I was stuck in the rain." He Yining a little embarrassed excuse. "Eh?" Li Yunze said softly, "I didn''t say you were crying!" He Yining was stunned when he listened, and then angrily wrinkled his nose and retorted, "I didn''t say my eyes, I said my face..." Li Yunze smiled and hugged he Yining tightly. "What a fool..." Exclamation words, every word seems to fall into he Yining''s heart, integrate the blood, and spread in all nerves. "You follow me like this, or are you near the hospital? No problem?" Why rather stuffy asked, his cheek still rubbed against Li Yunze''s body. "I don''t know..." Li Yunze''s eyes were deep, "but at this moment, I don''t want to take care of it." The wayward voice is not calm. This is not a person who is often in the operating room. He should have some emotions But they are all human beings, and they will have the impulse to control at that moment. Li Yunze is no exception. "Li Yunze..." he Yining''s voice was a little grumbling. "If you are like this, I don''t know whether to continue acting. I expect you to award me a new star award." Li Yunze gently rubbed his chin, why Ning''s hair top, his voice was deep and deep, and gently opened his mouth: "OK..." paused, "the new star award is me, how about it?" "What you said..." why should Ning ring Li Yunze''s waist and tighten his arms? The fundus of his eyes is wet, but the corners of his mouth are smiling happily. He knows that for her, the best gift is only him! Li Yunze held he Yining with his umbrella in the rain. The raindrops'' crackled ''on the umbrella. Occasionally, elm leaves fluttered in the rain and fell around them. What is romantic love talk? In the rain, people in love embrace each other under the umbrella. At that moment, they put aside everything and only have each other in their wayward eyes How many times has he Yining fantasized about such a plot from childhood to adulthood? When it really happens out of guard, she knows that there is such a big gap between fantasy romance and real romance Big enough, she is greedy, and she has more desires. "Li Yunze, why do you want to follow?" He Yining asked softly. "Passing by an intersection, I suddenly saw an old lady selling flowers under the roadside rain..." Li Yunze gently let go of he Yining, smiled and said, "at that moment, I just wanted to give you a gift, so I went to buy it and followed." "But I didn''t hear you buying flowers!" He Yining looked curious. Li Yunze smiled, "that''s a deaf mute who often sells flowers at the intersection near the pharmaceutical factory..." With that, he attached himself and took out a small potted plant in the car. It is a hyacinth that has just opened, a white porcelain basin, green branches and leaves, fiery red flowers "Hyacinth?!" Why Ning looked at Li Yunze curiously. "Yes." Li Yunze rubbed his head with a smile, as if he had returned to his youth. What should have happened at that time. Time can''t go back, but he can make Yining feel the loss once, and he finds it back bit by bit. "Hyacinth has the meaning of rebirth..." she raised her eyes and looked at Li Yunze. "Is it because of our feelings that you sent me this?" "Isn''t it?" Li Yunze asked with a smile. Why should Ning hang his eyes and look at the red hyacinth and ask with a slight frown: "what is flower language?" Her favorite colors are purple and green. Li Yunze didn''t buy flower balls of these two colors. It can be understood that he didn''t know her favorite color But red... I don''t believe it''s the color Li Yunze will buy. "I don''t know. I bought it easily." Li Yunze was stunned and said, "isn''t hyacinth reborn?" "Each color seems to have a different flower language..." why Ning muttered. Unexpectedly, Li Yunze''s answer was'' I don''t know ''. Although she was a little lost, she was still very happy to receive the flowers unexpectedly and see him. Li Yunze took a panoramic view of the expression on he Yining''s face, and a shallow smile crossed his eyes. Just as he wanted to say something, his cell phone rang. Take it out. It''s Wang Zhihua, the director of the pharmaceutical factory. Then he put it in his ear and heard Wang Zhihua''s voice: "Li Shao, are you still coming?" After a pause, his voice was a little dignified, "there are some problems with M-series new drugs." Li Yunze frowned slightly and then said, "I''ll go now." "Good!" Li Yunze hung up the phone. He Yining looked at her and asked, "what''s the matter?" "The pharmaceutical factory has a little problem. I''ll go and have a look... It''s okay." Li Yunze smiled, "OK, go back." He Yining nodded. "Drive carefully." Li Yunze answered and attached himself to he Yining. He dropped a kiss on his forehead At the same time, Meng Yi drove from behind Chapter 1390 Li Yunze originally just wanted to kiss, but when his lips fell on the slightly cool forehead, his body suddenly throbbed, directly held the back of he Yining''s brain, and his lips pressed on her lips Because of the kiss, the big black umbrella was pressed very low. Covering most of their bodies, outsiders will only think of what couples are doing, but they can''t see people''s faces from the outside. Meng Yi subconsciously tilted his head and looked into his eyes. His eyes were deep, and then he took back his sight. The car passed by Li Yunze''s car. From beginning to end, he didn''t pay attention to the car. Or he never thought that anyone he knew would make such "extraordinary" and bold behavior. Just as Meng Yi''s car crossed the corner and didn''t pass the driver''s seat, Li Yunze ended the kiss Looking at he Yining whose face was crimson because of his actions, Li Yunze raised his hand and gently rubbed her lips, "I''m leaving." Why did Ning zhe nod at the corners of his mouth and pick up the umbrella that fell on the ground accompanied by Li Yunze. "There''s always a chance to tell her one by one, huh?" Li Yunze explained. "OK." Why should I rather answer the voice, "go and be busy. I have a sense of propriety." "Yes." Li Yunze stared deeply at why he Ning and then turned to get on the car. After he Yining watched the car turn and leave, he turned and walked to the hospital again Looking at the red hyacinth in his hand, he Yining was curious. With an umbrella around his neck, he took out his mobile phone and searched the Internet "The flower language of red hyacinth is..." He Yining slides her mobile phone. When she sees that the flower language is "thank you, let me move my love, your love fills my heart", her eyes turn red uncontrollably again. Such flower language, she doesn''t believe, Li Yunze doesn''t know Even if he didn''t know at first, he must know at the moment he bought it. Why did Ning suddenly turn back? There was no shadow of Li Yunze''s car on the road. She smiled, and her blurred vision was the same as being covered by the rain. "Li Yunze, how can I love you so much that I won''t feel enough..." He Yining laughed at his hypocritical words, "he Yining said as if you could let go when he was bad to you!" I despised myself. Why should I smile at the corners of my mouth, hold hyacinth and walk happily to the hospital ¡­¡­ Night, m3. Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze drinking one cup after another, didn''t say anything, and slightly frowned. "Yunze..." With a soft bang, a glass of wine was put in front of Qu Weiwei. "Don''t say anything. Drink with me." Qu Weiwei sighed heavily and didn''t speak, so she drank with Li Yunze cup by cup. The two people drank a lot from mixing wine to foreign wine, and both of them were slightly drunk. When people are in a bad mood, they either get drunk quickly, or the more they drink, the more sober they become At the moment, Li Yunze was completely clear as he drank more, but his handsome face showed a faint complex emotion under forbearance. Qu Weiwei drank a little uncomfortable. She bit her teeth, put down her glass, looked sideways at Li Yunze and said, "if you really can''t go on, why don''t you choose to break up?" Li Yunze tilted his head and looked at her with deep eyes. Qu Weiwei smiled coldly on her side. She didn''t know whether it was self mockery or ridicule to Li Yunze. "When you were with me, you didn''t separate so slowly. Why did you procrastinate when you got to he Yining?" Li Yunze closed his eyes, narrowed slightly, didn''t speak, picked up the glass and wanted to drink Qu Weiwei pressed his hand and sneered, "if you can''t put it down, don''t drink muggy wine here alone. If it''s just because of the child, are you afraid Li Yunze won''t come back?" Li Yunze frowned slightly, turned his head and looked at Qu Weiwei. There was an obvious urgency in her eyes, but it was suppressed again in an instant. "Forget it, what position do I take in the matter between you and Yining?" Qu Weiwei said, took back her hand and stood up without saying anything. She took one side of the bag and turned to leave. Li Yunze suddenly grabbed her wrist, and Qu Weiwei took a few deep breaths, as if angry and helpless to throw the bag back to the stool. "OK, I''ll drink with you today..." Qu Weiwei gritted her teeth. "If you want to drink, anytime, anywhere, I''ll sacrifice my life to accompany a gentleman!" "Rub your forehead..." "You..." Qu Weiwei seemed to be angry with Li Yunze. Li Yunze closed his eyes, and regardless of Qu Weiwei''s mood, he said: "you go, I want to sit alone..." Qu Weiwei''s face suddenly changed, "Li Yunze, you really make me look down on you." Li Yunze smiled and looked at Qu Weiwei. "Weiwei, tell me, why did he Yining have my child and hide me for so long?" His eyes filled with anger, "the most important thing is, if she doesn''t want to be with me, why do you want to try with me? But if you try with me, why are you tangled with Jin shaosi?" Qu Weiwei tilted her head and tightened her mouth, as if she didn''t want to discuss it. "You grew up with her," said Li Yunze. "You know her best, don''t you?" Qu Weiwei took a deep breath and said with a self deprecating face, "Yunze, what do you want me to say?" Her eyes were slightly red. "Yining and I grew up together, just like twins. You know... But in the end, because of you, we went farther and farther." Li Yunze didn''t speak, just listened. "You know very well that at first I had nothing to do with you. Even if I liked you, I never showed it because of Yining." Qu Weiwei sneered, "but what? What do I get and what do I get at last?" Li Yunze was silent, as if he remembered what happened in those years, and there was a touch of anger across his eyes "From beginning to end, I''m the one to bear..." Qu Weiwei took a deep breath. "Why did I have to pay for you two, and now I have to be caught between you? Have you thought about my feelings?" Li Yunze slightly twisted his eyebrows and looked at Qu Weiwei dimly. There was a touch of guilt at the bottom of his eyes "Why don''t you ask yourself? Is it strange that she will have your children?" Qu Weiwei said, "Li Yunze, don''t you know how much you drink?" She didn''t say anything very clear, but everyone can understand what she meant. Looking at Li Yunze''s face constantly changing, Qu Weiwei secretly wondered whether to add another fire For example, when he Tianshu and Meng Ya died! Chapter 1391 If the fire is lit and burned with oil, will it be counterproductive?! Qu Weiwei kept thinking about the pros and cons in her heart. Her words almost impulsively have overflowed her throat Suddenly, but suddenly. The bottom of Li Yunze''s eyes showed a dark darkness. He could feel that Qu Weiwei was almost about to say it. "Why Yining, in my impression, has always been capricious..." Li Yunze took back her eyes and looked ahead, with a touch of emotion at the bottom of her eyes, fleeting. "What can''t she do in order to achieve some of the goals she wants?!" The guiding words fell, and Li Yunze was waiting. These days, no matter he Yining''s performance, or his purposeful approach to Qu Weiwei Waiting for her to say what happened back then. "Yes... In order to achieve her goal, what can''t she do at will?" Qu Weiwei was guided again. Li Yunze gently fanned his eyes. Even though he was eager to ask directly, he was still waiting Qu Weiwei''s words are not credible, but he needs to get some clues from her mouth in order to know the truth of what happened that year. No matter he or Jin shaosi, they all think that things were not simple. The atmosphere around is a little treacherous. Qu Weiwei wondered whether this was the best time to talk about it. She held back at the corners of her mouth and tightened her hand holding the wine glass. "Back then, it was her willfulness..." Qu Weiwei spoke in the end, and Li Yunze looked at her. The slight drunkenness on the surface well covered up his inner urgency at the moment. However, Qu Weiwei stopped talking. She put her hand on her lap and clenched it. Inexplicably, there was an uneasy emotion across it. No, Li Yunze and he Yining haven''t officially made it irreparable. If she says something now, will he think she''s provoking discord?! "What happened then?" Li Yunze spoke quietly. Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze and said, "forget it, it''s nothing!" Li Yunze frowned slightly and obviously didn''t believe it. Qu Weiwei took back her eyes. "There are some things I don''t want to say. If I say too much, I still think what''s going on with me." She got up again, took her bag and looked at Li Yunze. "Yunze, you''re not a muddleheaded person. What do you want to do? You know very well. What do you want me to do when I''m a bad person?" Qu Weiwei tilted her head and sneered, "yes, anyway, I''m also a bad person in Yining, and I don''t mind one more provocative crime..." Li Yunze frowned a little, obviously dissatisfied with Qu Weiwei. "I''m in a bad mood at the moment. Let''s go first." Qu Weiwei said, stared deeply at Li Yunze, turned and left m3. Li Yunze looked back at Qu Weiwei''s back. She didn''t look back until she went out. She pushed the cup to the bartender, "another cup..." Soon, a light yellow wine with ice hockey was put in front of Li Yunze. He looked at the liquid, his eyes gradually deepened, deep as the deep sea in the dark night, filled with turbulent undercurrent. Qu Weiwei must have wanted to talk about the accident between uncle he and aunt he just now! After the car accident, he family collapsed. He family is not so unable to make ends meet. Even when they left, they needed to auction the winery and vineyard ¡­¡­ After Qu Weiwei returned to her apartment, she called Meng Yi. "What?" Meng Yi asked. "Meng Yi, I''m a little uneasy..." Qu Weiwei frowned. "I don''t know why, Li Yunze and he Yining Mingming are getting more and more stiff now, but I just can''t say my uneasiness." "Do you think they might not be as good as they seem?" Meng Yi thought and asked. "I don''t know..." Qu Weiwei closed her eyes and her face was full of anxiety. "I think something is wrong, but I can''t say... That''s a feeling, do you understand?" Meng Yi put down his fruit knife and got up. He went to the kitchen and poured himself a glass of water. "Is it because you care too much, causing a chain reaction after stress?" "I don''t know!" Qu Weiwei''s voice was weak. Meng Yi took a sip of water. "Well, I''ll follow him recently. He Yining..." he turned and went out of the kitchen. "Li Yunze''s side, if you follow, I''m afraid you''ll be found. He Yining''s side should be easy to follow." "OK..." the purpose of Qu Weiwei''s call is actually this, "Meng Yi, you always know me best." "The purpose of our transaction has always been effective. Naturally, if I help you, I will help me." Meng Yi sat down on the sofa and looked at the fruit in the fruit plate. His eyes gradually deepened. "What I want is easier only if you are with Li Yunze." "Don''t worry, as long as I''m with Yunze, I''ll find you what you want." Qu Weiwei spoke. "Yes." Meng Yi answered faintly, "it''s getting late. Don''t think too much. Have a rest earlier." "OK, good night!" "Good night!" Meng Yi hung up, put down his mobile phone and slowly picked up the fruit knife He picked up an apple and put a cold smile on one side of his mouth. Just get what he wants Meng Yi put a shallow smile on one side of his mouth. That smile is full of cold desire. He slowly peels the apple and turns the apple skin. At the moment, in Meng Yi''s eyes, it''s like pulling the human skin bit by bit Full of blood. And in this process, his excited blood is beating. ¡­¡­ Time passed day by day, and in the twinkling of an eye it was the end of summer. Seeing that the qualification examination is coming soon, why Ning''s time is full. Weekends are one by one. I occasionally have dinner with Jin shaosi in the evening. Late at night... Someone will "sneak up" into her bed. Such a life, for he Yining, seems that the outside world has nothing to do with her. Blossomamp; TB western restaurant. He Yining looked at the man opposite and grinned secretly. If he hadn''t recognized him on the road the other day, he Yining never thought that this was Fu Yuheng who couldn''t sit down in a fat chair when he was a child Since that day, Fu Yuheng, who is now an international model, likes to drag her to look for delicious food in Los Angeles as long as there is no notice. "I heard that the fish sauce in this restaurant is very good..." Fu Yuheng''s face was hot. "You must try it." Why would you rather pull the corners of your mouth and look at the coke in your cup, "fish sauce with coke, I''m sorry you can think of it..." Fu Yuheng raised his eyebrows. "Don''t you like drinking? I remember!" He Yining was amused by Fu Yuheng''s appearance. "You are still as enthusiastic as when you were a child." "Must......" Fu Yuheng raised his eyebrows. "High Eq." Why is Ning zhe smiling and chatting with Fu Yuheng about each other''s interesting things? At that time, people who don''t know think they are men and women in love. Meng Yi sits in the corner where he can see the door and why Ning''s table Just when Fu Yuheng talked too hi and grasped why he Ning''s hand kindly with both hands, Li Yunze, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo entered the restaurant togethe Chapter 1392 As soon as Li Yunze entered the door, he saw Fu Yuheng and he Yining. His eyes dropped slightly and just landed on their hands. His face was uncontrollably bad. He Yining, are you looking for death?! Dare to let other men hold your hand, you can still smile so brilliantly! Jian Mo exchanged a wink with Gu Beichen. After thinking about it, he said hello to why he Ning without the past. Three people sat down together, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo in a row, and Li Yunze sat opposite alone, looking a little abusive to the dog. Most importantly, he Yining and Fu Yuheng talked so happily that they didn''t find Li Yunze and them coming into the restaurant from beginning to end. Meng Yi slowly picked up the wine glass and looked at Li Yunze''s extremely ugly face. I don''t know if it''s a coincidence. His position is just an oblique line of sight. Although it''s a little far away, he can still clearly feel the breath of Li Yunze. I spent more than a month with Jin Yining and was obviously happy with him. The opportunity to meet Li Yunze is getting longer and longer. Every time we meet, we basically break up unhappily. It has been no less than ten days since they met today. "Yunze knows?" Jane Mo whispered to Gu Beichen, but her eyes looked at another place. He Yining, who was talking with a man, was very happy. Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze''s gloomy face and said indifferently, "don''t you know by looking at the face opposite?" Jane Mo twitched at the corner of her mouth. "I don''t know. I thought you deliberately chose to eat here?!" Gu Beichen looked innocently at Jian Mo, "this is the third sister''s place, not afraid of being harassed..." "Really?" Light eh, with a cold and fierce voice overflowing, Li Yunze has taken back his sight on he Yining and glared at Gu Beichen, "you are really a brother." When I just looked back, I seemed to see the figure? If his memory is correct, the shadow is the shadow in the corner when Yining asked him if he was with her one by one in Huakang last time Li Yunze had a deep emotion at the bottom of his eyes, but it was fleeting. Yu Guang falls on Meng Yi''s side, and Li Yunze has turned several ideas in his heart. "It''s easy to say..." Gu Beichen calmly picked up the red wine glass and sipped, "I''ll give you a chance... It''s said that the two get along well." "Why would she rather not be three or four than take my daughter!" Li Yunze''s words fell. He got up angrily and walked to why Ning. "Ah Chen, can''t something happen?" Jane Mo was worried, "is Yunze''s remark too serious?!" Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly deep, and he said slowly, "who knows?" Then Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze He Yining found him when Li Yunze was approaching. She was too excited because of Fu Yuheng''s teasing. She opened her mouth and wanted to shout ''Li Yunze'' Li Yunze''s pupils shrunk slightly. He Yining almost took them off and swallowed them back. Why should Ning know Li Yunze too well? With a look in his eyes, she can quickly analyze his meaning. Even if you don''t understand, subconsciously, you have made an instinctive response to the news he sent. "He Yining, a young master Jin, seems not enough for your appetite." Li Yunze hissed coldly. "What do you mean?" "Isn''t my meaning obvious?" "Li Yunze, don''t put your dirty thoughts on me..." he Yining thought that this is a high-end restaurant. His voice was gnashing his teeth under forbearance. "I don''t want to discuss with you now. Please don''t disturb me and my friends for dinner." "Friends?" Li Yunze sneered at Fu Yuheng. "What friend? Boyfriend? Or blind date?" Fu Yuheng immediately frowned, "you say so..." "What if it''s a boyfriend? What if it''s the object of my blind date?" He Yining seemed to be stimulated by Li Yunze''s words. She immediately interrupted what Fu Yuheng wanted to explain. Every time Li Yunze and he Yining "confrontation", there is a feeling that fake drama comes true. Now, he really believes that if Yining goes to film, he must be a post film character. "He Yining, don''t forget that you and I are still in the ''try'' stage." Li Yunze said gnashing his teeth. "You also said, just try..." why Ning sneered, "if I can try with you, can''t I try with other men?" "You can try, but don''t teach my daughter bad!" Li Yunze seemed to finally burst out, "he Yining, it''s not convenient for you to take one by one. I''ll bother you to try with other men. In this case, I''ll get back the custody of one by one." "Li Yunze, don''t force me..." "How did I force you?!" The atmosphere was a little stiff. In the western restaurant, the diners all look at this place. People who come here for dinner and consumption have status. Even if they are curious, they won''t really gossip. However, when someone vaguely heard the child, they were surprised. Gu Beichen just revealed that he had a child over four years old for less than half a year, and Li Yunze also revealed that he had a child Nowadays, not only hidden marriage but also hidden children are popular?! "Li Yunze, if you want to fight, I''m not afraid!" Why rather gnash your teeth, "don''t think you can do whatever you want if you have power in Los Angeles. I''ll fight with you!" "Desperately?" Li Yunze sneered, "what are you trying to do with me? Money? Lawyer? Or... Ability?!" "You..." despised words made her feel angry. Because she was angry, she clenched her teeth and squeezed out two words on her chest, "bitch!" Then, why should Ning easily grab a glass of water and pour it on Li Yunze The moist breath meanders down his face. Li Yunze''s subconsciously closed eyes slowly open, gnashing his teeth and looking at he Yining, as if he had the impulse to hit people at any time. Fu Yuheng is a little confused. He hasn''t returned home for a long time. When he comes back, he will meet his old classmates. He''s just too excited. He doesn''t want to destroy other people''s feelings. "Yining..." Fu Yuheng wanted to explain why he would rather turn around and hold his wrist, "let''s go!" "Yining..." Fu Yuheng was at a loss. He Yining didn''t give him a chance to speak at all and had dragged him away. Li Yunze still stood where he was, and the water on his face fell down drop by drop. He looked particularly embarrassed. He Yining, do you want to play a full set? Pour me water Li Yunze secretly clenched his teeth. Because of dissatisfaction, his face also showed some "towering anger" under forbearance. Meng Yi looked at this scene indifferently. At the moment why Ning dragged Fu Yuheng out of the restaurant, he took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to Qu Weiwei: call Li Yunze now. Good time! Chapter 1393 Jane Mo twisted her eyebrows and looked at Li Yunze, "Yunze and Yining..." "Someone has to take a step first," Gu Beichen said faintly. "What''s the result? It''s also their choice." "But..." Jane Mo couldn''t bear to stop talking. Gu Beichen gently rubbed Jian Mo''s hand, and his sight dropped slightly on Jian Mo''s slightly raised belly. "Yunze has Yining in his heart. Although he hated her when he was a child, he has to say that he knows her." "Know two people and make such a fuss?" Jane skimmed her mouth. Gu Beichen''s thin lips slightly scratched a faint smile, "God is fair." "Huh?" Jane Mo twisted her eyebrows in some confusion. "Given us good living conditions, we always have to take something away..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and said, "it''s always harder than ordinary people to get it back." Jane Mo had a feeling when she heard it. She and President Gu have been together for nearly seven years, but now there is another storm But even so, Jian Mo felt that in her life, meeting Gu Beichen was the greatest impatience and happiness in her life. After all, she married her heart to love. How many people are happier than her? Thinking of this, Jian Mo looked at Li Yunze again. Whether he and Yining can come to the end or not, she wants to do something for their love Maybe they just came to the door?! "Call Yining and Yiyi for a barbecue at the weekend?" Asked Jane mo. Gu Beichen naturally understood her idea and nodded, "OK!" "Ah Chen, go and shout Yunze to come over..." Jane Mo slightly picked her chin. Gu Beichen didn''t move, because he saw Li Yunze take out his mobile phone. "I''m afraid he may not be in the mood to eat." Sure enough, after Li Yunze answered the phone, he put down the sentence "he left first" and left the restaurant. ¡­¡­ Fu Yuheng sat in the nanny car and looked at he Yining. His eyes were completely guilty. "Well, I''d better explain it?" "No." He Yining said, the voice of SMS arrival came from the mobile phone. She took it out and sure enough, it was sent by Li Yunze: Qu Weiwei called, used to drink, you go home now! Also, wait for me to settle with you! He Yining grinned secretly. Knowing that Li Yunze was talking about splashing water, she deliberately ignored her reply: you can drink with women, and I can''t eat with men! Not back! Fu Yuheng didn''t find why Ning was so cunning at the moment. He just drooped his shoulders with a sigh. "Alas, I didn''t expect you to have children... It''s just that this man looks good, but what he said just now is very ugly." "Hmm..." why should Ning be absent-minded? He smiled at the text message Li Yunze replied again. Li Yunze: OK, I think you''re itchy again... Don''t you have to clean up?! "Did you have children without getting married with him? Alas, you don''t look like the kind of unmarried child-bearing for a man..." Fu Yuheng still couldn''t figure it out. It''s like talking to yourself, and it''s like "gossip". "Things between me and him are a little complicated, not as they seem." He Yining said and replied to Li Yunze: Li Yunze, has someone been staring at us in the restaurant just now? Li Yunze replied: Well, the person who went to the hospital with you last time. He Yining knows that Li Yunze has a good memory and has no doubt: is he coincidental or Li Yunze smiled and shook his head: naive! Why Ning glanced and heard Fu Yuheng say, "Yining, did you listen to me? I said I thought about it and I''d better explain it to him." "I really don''t need to..." why should I rather cry and laugh, "I and his things, really others can''t intervene, we can only solve them ourselves." Fu Yuheng looked at he Yining. After a while, he came to a conclusion, "no wonder the man and you. It doesn''t matter what you look like... Yining, you don''t love him at all!" "..." why Ning''s mouth twitched. He didn''t understand where Fu Yuheng came to this conclusion. "Forget it, since you don''t have any feelings for him, I won''t explain. I can stop him for you..." Fu Yuheng said with great sacrifice. Why Ning zhe smiled and nodded cunningly in his eyes: "well, thank you..." ¡­¡­ Li Yunze drove to paradise night. As soon as he entered the door, he took off his coat and threw it to the waiter. The waiter took the clothes and said, "Li Shao, it''s ready." "Yes." Li Yunze answered and went upstairs. The waiter walked to the bar, slightly frowned at Li Yunze''s back, and said to the bartender who was mixing wine: "with so many pinhole cameras, what is Li Shao going to play?" The bartender looked at Li Yunze and said, "he has his reason for doing so." After a pause, he poured the wine in the wine mixer into the cup. "Brother Xiao told us to take care of Chen Shao and Li Shao. We''d better know less about others." The waiter nodded and sent Li Yunze''s clothes to the laundry. When Qu Weiwei came to heaven night, Li Yunze had been slightly drunk. She looked at Li Yunze covering her forehead in pain, and her mind was completely what Meng Yi said to her. He Yining, your insistence was so ridiculous Before, I was persistent because I couldn''t get it. Now is it because you get it, so you don''t cherish it, or because you have a relatively better Jin shaosi?! "Yunze..." Qu Weiwei shouted softly. "Here you are," Li Yunze looked at Qu Weiwei with drunken eyes, "come on, drink!" Qu Weiwei grabbed the wine bottle in Li Yunze''s hand, "I''m not here to drink with you. If you want to do this because of why, come to me to accompany you. Li Yunze, I also have a temper and mood!" Then she put the bottle on the tea table and wanted to leave. "Weiwei..." Li Yunze''s voice was full of wine. Qu Wei''s eyes stopped smiling. Turn around and just smile. Qu Weiwei looked at her Li Yunze with lax eyes, clenched her teeth, and said with a sad face: "I lost, I admit to being mixed between you, I lost... Li Yunze, even if I love you, she can''t be with you at last?" "Why?" "Even if you reluctantly stay with her for your children, you won''t be happy in the end!" "Why?!" Li Yunze suddenly stood up. "Because there is a gap between you that will never be crossed..." Qu Weiwei said gnashing her teeth. "Yunze, I really don''t want to say this, but I don''t want to see you suffering in the fruitless communication!" Li Yunze''s eyes narrowed slightly and hid the terrible waves from the bottom of his eyes, "what''s the matter?" Chapter 1394 Qu Weiwei clenched her hand, as if her eyes were slightly red. Looking at Li Yunze, she said sadly, "master and lady..." She paused. These two titles are far away from Qu Weiwei. However, the feeling of being a servant is still clear. "The car accident that year was related to Yining." Qu Weiwei endured the pain under the sadness and said, "it''s because Yining came to you, it''s because of me and you, Yining came to you... So they had a car accident!" "What are you talking about?" Li Yunze wrung his eyebrows slightly, and his eyes were unbelievable. Qu Weiwei''s eyes were redder, and her voice choked with forbearance. "I didn''t know it until later. I thought it was false, but it was true!" Li Yunze''s breath was slightly rapid. He stared at Qu Weiwei''s face as if he wanted to shoot through her. "I don''t know the specific situation. I just heard..." Qu Weiwei said. "I heard that Yining knew something. It seems that it''s not just because of me and you, but another thing related to you... And then I want to prove it." Li Yunze was dazed at the bottom of his eyes, and his mind quickly searched for what he Yining had to do with him, or what he would have to do with him However, in the past, their involvement was not just about love pursuit?! What else?! If Qu Weiwei wants to make up the facts or hide the truth of the year, there is no need to use such flawed reasons "What''s the matter?" Li Yunze asked subconsciously. Qu Weiwei shook her head. "I don''t know. I just heard that Yining found something, and then came out to find you like crazy..." she said solemnly. "Then, a servant went to the master and wife and said the situation, their faces changed. They hurried to chase, and then..." Then what, Qu Weiwei didn''t continue to say, and there was no need to say. Suddenly, he Tianshu and Meng Ya died on the spot. When he Yining found Li Yunze, he was informed of his parents'' death and called away before he could even say anything. In those years, why would you rather find Li Yunze for what? Now we don''t know. Later, when he family fell, he Yining was no longer as active as before. Although, still love Li Yunze love crazy, but it seems that without the original stock, there is no turning back. Li Yunze''s eyes grew deeper and deeper. He gradually frowned, and the expression on his face was strange under the dim light. "I shouldn''t have said these things..." Qu Weiwei took a deep breath. "If you and Yining could be well, I wouldn''t say, but now..." She giggled, full of self-criticism. "Yunze, even if you are together now, isn''t it a thorn in Yining''s heart about the master and wife?" Qu Weiwei asked, "even if she ignored it, what about the thing she wanted to ask you?" Li Yunze sat down a little decadent. He covered his forehead with his hands and said in a hoarse voice, "if there were so many things in the middle, why did she give birth to one..." "That''s Yining''s thought of you!" Qu Weiwei almost roared. She looked at Li Yunze''s "pain" with a touch of pride in her eyes. He Yining, you can''t get Yunze after all. He can only be mine in the end! ¡­¡­ Tan Zhonglang sat on the ridge under the grape trellis. The autumn night was a little cool, especially in the large grape forest. But such coolness made Tan Zhonglang miss it. At first, he, ASI and some workers would sometimes nest on the ridge with the master late at night, talking about the variety of grapes and the development of the winery Jin shaosi came cold with two goblets and a bottle of red wine. Like Tan Zhonglang, regardless of his expensive suit, he sat down on the ridge and handed a cup to tan Zhonglang. Tan Zhonglang took it. After Jin shaosi poured the wine, they clinked their glasses and took a shallow sip. "What''s up?!" Although Tan Zhonglang is asking, he can already see. "At that time, I sorted out the things stacked in the storage room in the winery, and turned to the previous photo album..." Jin shaosi sighed deeply. "I suddenly miss the master when he thought of piling up with us in the winery at that time." Tan Zhonglang''s eyes deepened, his face flashed sad, raised his hand and drank wine. "A Lang..." Jin shaosi looked sideways at Tan Zhonglang. "What happened in those years? I didn''t ask again when Yining suddenly arrived last time." Tan Zhonglang didn''t speak to Shang Jin shaosi. "Is it really about Yining?" Asked Jin shaosi. Tan Zhonglang took back his eyes, looked down at the glass in his hand, shook it gently, and said after a long time: "why did the master and wife go after the young lady? I don''t know, but it was because of chasing her that the car accident happened..." Jin shaosi''s sharp eyes were slightly heavy. He could feel that what a Lang said at the moment was true. "Yining to Li Yunze, it''s been so many years. It doesn''t make sense. The master and wife go after Li Yunze because she goes to find Li Yunze." Mr. Jin frowned. After all, Li Yunze was not good to Yining, which was known by the people in the circle at the beginning. Although the master was helpless, he also let Yining make trouble. Tan Zhonglang''s eyes flashed a flash of dodging emotion. He looked at Jin shaosi and hurriedly took back his sight, "I don''t know." "You know..." Jin shaosi shen Mou. "I really don''t know." Tan Zhonglang didn''t lie. He didn''t know why the master and his wife would go after the young lady. He just knew that it was sister-in-law Feng who went to see the master and wife and said something. I just know that sister-in-law Feng told the master and wife about the young lady, but what to say. He later asked Weiwei, but she didn''t mention it ¡­¡­ Li Yunze was drunk, very drunk, half lying on the sofa, motionless. Qu Weiwei sat aside and looked at Li Yunze. The expression on her face changed several times. She didn''t drink much this night. She was basically watching Li Yunze drink. The sight was slightly tilted and fell on the tea table with wine. The pile of wine bottles on it was a little scared Take back her sight, and Qu Weiwei''s sight falls on Li Yunze again. "Weiwei, there''s another way. You can see if Li Yunze and he Yining have any contact..." Meng Yi thought in his mind, "their phones are set up for confidentiality. You can''t find them from the operator by special means, but you can see his mobile phone when you''re caught off guard..." Meng Yi''s mouth overflowed with a smile, "whether it''s a phone call or information, there''s always a trace." Qu Weiwei clenched her hand and looked down. At that time, Li Yunze answered the phone and left it on the mobile phone on the tea table Chapter 1395 Qu Weiwei went to get her mobile phone. After looking at Li Yunze, she turned on her mobile phone. There are few phone records. The most recent one was a few days ago. The call time is not long. She remembers that Meng Yi said that day that he Yining and Li Yunze broke up happily again There seems to be no problem with the call records, but there are few messages between Li Yunze and he Yining. Basically, there were several dull itches in the trial stage. Later, when there were contradictions, it was basically why Ning asked her what she was doing, and he occasionally replied "busy"! From the mobile phone records, combined with the recent events, it seems that... There is no problem. Qu Weiwei''s eyes were deep. She put down her mobile phone and looked at Li Yunze. "Yunze, you are really destined not to be with her..." Qu Wei squatted down slowly beside Li Yunze and touched his face gently and nihilistically. "I admit that I''m selfish... Say that. On the one hand, I don''t want to see you continue to struggle, on the other hand, I want to be with you..." In the end, Qu Weiwei''s face was covered with a layer of hostility. "Even if you don''t know, I hope you will be in front of me, even if you don''t know!" The quiet words showed complex emotions. Qu Weiwei looked at the drunken Li Yunze. After a while, her eyes moved and slowly attached to her body, trying to kiss Li Yunze When Qu Weiwei''s lips were about to touch Li Yunze, the door of the box was suddenly opened, and she got up in a reflective hurry. Looking back, I saw a drunk man looking around. He didn''t know what he was whispering. He turned and left again Qu Weiwei felt angry at the bottom of her eyes, suddenly stood up and wanted to close the door. "Is Li Shao drunk?" Qu Weiwei just walked a few steps. A waiter happened to pass by. Seeing the door open, she planned to come in and collect the empty bottle. Qu Weiwei took a breath secretly, looked back at Li Yunze, who was drunk and dreamy of death. She clenched her teeth secretly, but her voice couldn''t hear any emotion and said, "I''m completely drunk. I''m going to ask you for help!" The waiter first looked at Li Yunze and then twisted his eyebrows and said, "Li Shao is too drunk. Would you like to call a car for you or go to the guest room to have a rest?" There is a guest room on the first floor of heaven at night, which can only be enjoyed by VIP personnel here. Qu Weiwei was curious, "is Yunze a VIP here?" The waiter smiled. "He, Chen Shao and Chu Shao often come to drink together. They are all VIPs here..." he paused. "The consumption of this floor is generally only for VIPs." Qu Weiwei didn''t think too much, just nodded, "he''s drunk like this. I can''t do it alone. Let''s have a rest here!" "OK." The waiter answered and turned out. As he turned the corner of the door, he slightly tilted his head and looked into the box, with a sneer on the bottom of his eyes. Just before passing the door, the waiter turned back, compared a gesture with the "drunk" who had inadvertently pushed the door, and went to call someone to help. That box is full of cameras, 360 degrees without dead corners. They always pay attention to the situation inside. Just when the woman wants to do something against Li, they can only... Destroy! In Los Angeles, Paradise night and devil "s kiss can be said to be the personnel base of the Dragon owl. Usually, everyone is divided into parts and become the most common occupation. But anyone here is the most loyal person of the Dragon Owl People here know the relationship between Li Yunze, Gu Beichen and the Dragon owl. Before he came, he told him to install a camera here. Although he didn''t express his intention, everyone naturally understood that this woman wouldn''t be what Li Yunze wanted. Soon, Li Yunze, who was drunk in a mess, was sent to the guest room. It''s different from the noise at the bottom, but it''s separated by one floor. It''s quiet here, like two worlds. "Go and get some sober for Li Shao," one of the waiters said to the other. "If you''re drunk like this, I''m afraid you''ll feel bad tomorrow..." "OK." The man answered and left. Qu Weiwei moved her lips slightly and closed again. She originally wanted to refuse the waiter, but it seemed that she had no reason to refuse the sober soup. She tilted her head and looked at Li Yunze who fell on the bed. Qu Weiwei secretly clenched her teeth. Everyone here knows Li Yunze. If they say something later, isn''t she intentional? Having done so much, she can''t give up all her previous efforts. After what happened tonight, I''m afraid the relationship between Li Yunze and he Yining is split again. Is she afraid she won''t win in the end?! Qu Weiwei watched the waiter skillfully put a bowl of sober soup, "advised" the drunken Li Yunze to drink it, and couldn''t help saying, "you''re very experienced in this field." "Here, I''m used to it." The waiter was a little embarrassed. Qu Weiwei smiled. "I''m relieved to have you take care of me. Then I''ll go first." "Won''t you stay and take care of Li Shao?" The waiter asked. There was an obvious ambiguity between the words. Qu Weiwei smiled and shook her head. "My current relationship with him is a little awkward and not suitable." The waiter said "Oh" and nodded clearly, "don''t worry." "Yes." Qu Weiwei answered, looked at Li Yunze and left. When Qu Weiwei stepped out of heaven night, Li Yunze slowly opened her eyes with a splitting headache "Li Shao..." "Didn''t I get sobering medicine last time?" Li Yunze wrung his eyebrows, and his eyes were red because of drinking too much wine, "how can I drink it as before..." "Brother Xiao said, it''s hard to eat..." the waiter said with a smile. As soon as Li Yunze heard this, he immediately screwed his eyebrows together. "Boss long is back?" "You were about to leave when you called." "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth and rubbed his forehead with a sad murmur, "it''s typical that he is unhappy and can''t see others comfortable." Paused. "Bring me the sobering medicine I left here." "It''s already here." While another waiter answered, he came in and handed the medicine to Li Yunze. "The videos already exist here..." The man took out the USB flash drive from his pocket, and Li Yunze took it in his eyes. After drinking the sobering medicine, he slowed down for a while and felt a little sober before calling Jin shaosi. After exchanging the information they got in the evening, they heard Jin shaosi say, "when Yining came to you, I suspected that it was the master and wife informed by sister-in-law Feng, but what made them so eager to chase Yining?" "Yining didn''t mention it," Li Yunze paused, and his voice was dry and dumb after drinking. "Could it be that a Lang and Qu Weiwei talked about this?" Chapter 1396 Jin shaosi stood in front of the window, reading the bottom with one hand, and looked at the moonlight covered by the clouds. After a few seconds, he frowned and said, "this thing should not..." "Because sister-in-law Feng is Qu Weiwei''s mother?" Li Yunze asked. "If it''s airy and there are so many servants in he''s family, there''s no need for ASI not to say. Just make up one. After all, I''m not here later. I don''t know if there are any new servants." Jin shaosi screwed off his eyebrows. "Of course, I don''t rule out the situation in case." For Qu Weiwei, Jin shaosi had no good impression since childhood. Even though people all over the world, including master and wife, even prefer to think she is good, he doesn''t like her. It''s an instinctive nuisance. At first, he thought that the disgust was entirely because Qu Weiwei was sometimes too clever and beautiful, which covered up Yining''s good, or set off Yining''s too capricious. Later, when he found that Qu Weiwei tore up a love letter from a boy who liked her very much and threw chocolate into the trash, he realized that his dislike was entirely due to this man''s disguise. That day, he happened to go downtown to buy medicine for his mother. Because near Yining''s school, he just wanted to see her coming out of the school gate, so he waited there, thinking that if she came home, he could accompany her. Who knows, Yining was punished by the teacher at school for something that day. He didn''t wait. Ziyining sent a text message. She said her homework was missing and had to be handed in, so the teacher punished her to rewrite it five times. If she couldn''t finish it, she was not allowed to go home. He thought that when Yining finished writing five times and it was dark, he planned to buy her something to eat in the nearby snack bar first. Because of this, he bumped into a boy who was very good-looking, tall and energetic and confessed to Qu Weiwei. Qu Weiwei accepted the boy''s love letter and chocolate, and also made it clear that now he focuses on his studies and asked him to focus on his studies first. How to describe the boy''s expression at that moment? Yes, the goddess he likes is indeed a goddess. Well, he needs to work harder to deserve it. And what happened after that, just like many dog blood stories Qu Weiwei tore up the love letter and threw away the chocolate. Naturally, she wanted to leave a sentence: "you can only buy a box of chocolate with the money from working on weekends. Do you expect me to live with you like this?" A real word leaked her mind. In he family, she Qu Weiwei looks bright, but her essence is... Servant! Li Yunze also pondered for a while, "I want to know now. If this is true, what is the thing that Yining came to me to say?" If the words of Qu Weiwei and Tan Zhonglang are true, the question is, what did Yining come to him to say? But now, if you ask Yining what happened that day, wouldn''t it remind her of the pain of her parents'' death? Whether it was because of her or not, Tan Zhonglang''s words came first. She could have ignored him before, but when he asked?! Will this become an obstacle to them? The most important thing is that the original intention of his investigation is that he doesn''t want Yining to know. If he asks Yining, isn''t it against the original intention?! "I''m afraid not." Jin shaosi''s voice came at the right time. Li Yunze closed his dry eyes, "I''ll go to the micro expression expert first and see how much is true when Qu Weiwei said this thing." "Yes." Jin shaosi answered and hung up. The dim moonlight fainted and dyed the dark night, making the clouds illusory. Young secretary Jin recalled what he had done in the past and wanted to find clues. What could make Yining eager to find Li Yunze, while the master and his wife were afraid or nervous to find her?! ¡­¡­ The next day, the weather in Los Angeles was a little overcast, as if cold air was coming. The people at work have retreated from the freshness of summer and added coats one after another. Li Yunze waited with his arms around his chest. The micro expression expert looked at the video. In the silent video, he could only judge the emotion at that moment from the character''s expression and body language. "You see, when she said this paragraph, she was more excited..." the micro expression expert pointed to Qu Weiwei and said, "the outline of her eyes is slightly open, and the pupil shrinks sharply, indicating that she is emotionally unstable at the moment, but she has made up her mind." "And here, there is a faint sneer at the corners of her mouth. Combined with the situation just now, this is the performance of human beings to relieve their emotions and tense muscles when they tell the secret of psychological repression..." The micro expression expert looked at Li Yunze. "During this time, the credibility of what she said will be much higher." Li Yunze looked at the computer screen with deep eyes. This time was the time when Qu Weiwei told him that uncle he and aunt he had a car accident. In other words, uncle he and aunt he did have a car accident because Yining came to him. Li Yunze''s eyebrows were tight and could be tied into a knot. His face became heavier and heavier because the micro expression experts continued to decompose. "She looked at your cell phone and showed that she still had distrust of you," said the micro expression expert. "It''s just that after reading it, there''s no distrust." Li Yunze sneered. He wondered if Qu Weiwei would find a chance to see his mobile phone. As long as it wasn''t during the acting, the text messages he read or the calls he received were deleted. All he left was what he wanted her to see ¡­¡­ Why rather gently covered his eyes and gradually wrung his eyebrows. "What''s the matter?" Song Tianye came back from the ward and saw why Ning was like this. He asked with some worry, "isn''t it uncomfortable? The weather is changeable these two days. Don''t get sick." He Yining opened his eyes and shook his head. "No, I don''t know why. Today, he jumped without moving his eyelids. After jumping, he began to panic..." "What''s going on?" Song Tianye goes to get a cup of boiled water for he Yining. "Didn''t you sleep well?" He Yining sighed and shook his head. "Eyelid jumping sometimes has a lot to do with nerves," Song Tianye said. "Don''t be too nervous. Be careful about everything." "Yes." Why should I rather answer the voice, "go and be busy." Song Tianye nodded and went to see the case. He Yining''s uneasiness didn''t disappear at all because of song Tianye''s words. On the contrary, the feeling spread more and more He Yining looks at Song Tianye. After all, he takes his mobile phone to the corridor and dials Li Yunze. The phone was soon connected, and Li Yunze''s shallow, soft smile came, "huh?" "Li Yunze, I..." "Squeak -" Suddenly, there was a sharp sound of the brake. He Yining''s pupils dilated in an instant, his face turned pale, his mouth opened and shouted ''Li Yunze'', but at this moment, the vocal cords seemed to be damaged and couldn''t make a sound. Chapter 1397 "Li......" he Yining''s voice came out after trying several times, "Li Yunze... Please... Don''t... don''t..." He Yining''s voice has no way to make a complete sound because of fear. Her eyes were red everywhere, and her whole scalp began to feel numb because of her hesitation and helplessness on the verge of collapse. There was no sound of Li Yunze, only the sound of hurried footsteps and noisy discussion. Why Ning''s heart has been tightly twisted together. Her face is getting paler and paler, and her brain is blank. She can''t think. What''s the sound that can be heard at the moment?! "No... no... Li Yunze..." He Yining couldn''t do anything but make a monotonous voice. Her eyes were red as if they were bleeding, "Li Yunze... You... Don''t... Don''t scare me..." He Yining''s breathing is getting heavier and heavier, and the position of his heart is suffocating. It seems that he wants to stop his heartbeat at any time. In particular, the eyelids have been jumping in the morning, and the heart has been uneasy. At this moment, it was as if her imagination had been magnified infinitely, filling her chest and nerves. Eyelashes trembled and fanned. Why would you rather keep shouting Li Yunze''s name? However, the phone has been on the phone, but only the rustling friction sound and the vague discussion sound around. He Yining''s mind was all about the scene of the car accident. Her whole body was shaking with fear. For her, the car accident was something hidden in the memory box that could not be touched. If If Li Yunze also He Yining gasped. Her weak body seemed to be evacuated and leaned against the wall. "Li Yunze... Don''t..." He Yining''s voice was choking, but his dry eyes seemed to forget the tears. At this moment, there were only panic under panic. I don''t know how long it took, like a century Li Yunze''s voice suddenly came from his mobile phone, "Yining!" "Li Yunze..." On hearing Li Yunze''s voice, why should Ning''s tense mood collapse in an instant. Li Yunze listened to he Yining''s voice, suddenly reacted to what was going on, and immediately said with guilt: "Yining, I''m fine. The accident wasn''t me, but the oncoming car failed. After I dodged, the car hit a pole on one side and had a great impact..." Li Yunze breathed slightly. He looked at the driver and was still stuck in the driver''s seat. The seriously injured driver said, "I didn''t care to say just now. I did emergency rescue first. Now I''m waiting for the fire to come and cut the car." "You, you scared me to death..." He Yining squatted down slowly, sat on the steps and began to cry. Listening to her cry, Li Yunze''s heart pulled up, "I''m sorry..." "I''m fine, just let me cry for a while..." why would you rather cry and say, "your practice is right. If you use time to explain to me, maybe that person will lose the best treatment time... Sorry, I shouldn''t have called you now..." "Yining..." Li Yunze shouted. After several seconds, his voice was a little tight. "I''ve finished handling it here. I''ll go to find you, huh?" "Hmm..." why Ning mumbled a single sound in his nose, "you must drive carefully." "OK, I will." Li Yunze''s voice soothed softly. He Yining hung up the phone, put his arms around his legs, buried his face, bit his lips and began to cry. She was really scared to death just now. She was so scared that this phone call became the last call She talked to her father and mother for the last time, but she hung up because she was too angry about Qu Weiwei at that time and didn''t have time to listen to it for a while. "Sobbing..." why would you rather hold back your voice and cry, but you can''t stop your tears. It is a kind of buried in the bottom of my heart for many years, many years Many of her deliberately forget, but it is just a pain of self deception. ¡­¡­ After Li Yunze hung up the phone, he watched the situation of the injured while waiting for the arrival of firefighters and ambulance personnel. The whistle sounded from far to near, and soon the firefighters and paramedics arrived. Cut the car, rescue the injured and send them to an ambulance. Because Li Yunze was at the scene, the man''s life was saved Li Yunze''s body was stained with a lot of blood. He was very fast. After streamlining the situation and talking to the traffic police, he left the scene. After driving for a while, Li Yunze suddenly stopped when he was passing through Luoda. It was autumn, and the decades old trees of Luoda still stood there On the day when uncle he and aunt he had a car accident, if there was one beside him, wouldn''t he leave? That''s a pity?! Li Yunze''s eyes were slightly moist. The emotion that he could not speak clearly and understand made him very uncomfortable at the moment. Yining, I''m suddenly afraid I''m really scared Afraid, everything is too late, too short, too short! Li Yunze slowly attached himself, his arm on the steering wheel, his forehead gently on it, and his face was completely tired. Why on earth did he go to check the events of that year? Can he act as if nothing exists, let the past pass, and be with Yining well? Even if... For a short time. But people are greedy. If he wants to be with Yining, how can he meet that short time? Let everything come unexpectedly, and then they will never be together again. Is that what he wants? Li Yunze slowly raised his head, leaned weakly against the car seat, and his eyes fell in front, completely a touch of sadness In those days, what was Yining looking for him for? Why should uncle he and aunt he stop Yining who has been crazy about him? What else is involved in this?! One by one, Li Yunze fell into confusion. It felt like a huge net, pushing him and Yining ¡­¡­ Seeing he Yining with red eyes, song Tianye asked anxiously, "what''s the matter? Is there really something wrong with you? You like to hold on. Sometimes you have to say you''re okay." He Yining took a deep breath. Fortunately, song Tianye was alone in the office at the moment. "It''s all right. I just thought my friend had a car accident and was scared..." "..." Song Tianye was silent when he heard about the car accident. He knew that Yining''s parents left in a car accident. "Is your friend okay?" Song Tianye asked. Why should I rather pull the corners of my mouth and shake my head, "I''m too nervous. It''s all right..." "It''s all right." Song Tianye sighed, "if you feel uncomfortable, go home? Anyway, the search is over in the morning, and there is no operation arrangement in the Department today." "No..." he Yining thought that Li Yunze might come later. If he went home, it was daytime. If that person followed all the time, it would be easy to be found. She didn''t want to delay Li Yunze''s affairs because of herself. Chapter 1398 Li Ze went to the hospital to wash her bloody clothes first. He went openly. Before he went, he called ma Guangming. Ma Guangming tried his best to buy a new batch of Huakang medicine. Whether he Yining is given the green light in all aspects or trying to please Li Yunze, Ma Guangming can''t wait to see Huakang''s new drug immediately. For such a dog leg, Li Yunze promised that after he called ma Guangming, he would pick him up in the parking lot. Sure enough Li Yunze glanced at his car and immediately pulled the smiling Ma Guangming, sighed slightly, stopped the car and got off "I just heard that Li Shao saved the driver of the runaway vehicle on the side of the road..." Ma Guangming came forward and said with a smile on his face. "It''s lucky that Li Shao was on the side. Otherwise, I''m afraid the man will be in bad luck." Li Yunze pulled the corners of his mouth, "Dean Ma, are you going to talk here?" "Ah?!" Ma Guangming immediately patted Tian''s forehead, "look at me, because I forgot the occasion when I thought of your first aid event mentioned by my friend... Come on, Li Shao, please!" Li Yunze took the lead in taking the bag with one hand and walked into the building Because Ma Guangming is fat and there is some gap between the length of his legs and Li Yunze, he can only drive his body to speed up his pace. When he got to the office, Ma Guangming was panting because he "caught up" with Li Yunze. "President Ma should lose weight." Li Yunze joked. Ma Guangming immediately grinned, "I used to exercise when I was young, but now I can''t care about it..." Li Yunze smiled and looked at Ma Guangming''s appearance of wanting to talk and stop. He said faintly, "I''m here today. In fact, there''s nothing special." "That Li Shao is..." Ma Guangming''s eyes moved slightly, and many thoughts had turned in his mind. "The new drug to be produced by Huakang recently has entered the final round of drug testing. If it is fast, it is estimated that it can be put into use in three or five months." Li Yunze didn''t go on. Ma Guangming was scratching like a feather in his heart at the moment. He was itching and wanted to jump. "I heard that Huakang''s new drug will also be put into several hospitals?" Ma Guangming asked tentatively. Li Yunze nodded. "I have this plan..." he raised his eyebrows and smiled. "President Ma''s disappearance is very smart?!" "Hey, hey, hear, hear!" At the right time, the secretary came in with coffee. "This was brought back by a friend from abroad some time ago," Ma Guangming said pleasantly. "Li Shao is an expert. See if it suits your taste..." Li Yunze took a drink from his cup and casually appreciated it. For those born with diamond spoons, many things have lost their novelty. Ma Guangming naturally knows, but he just wants to talk and continue with the new drug. Li Yunze has made many such contacts. Playing Tai Chi can arouse your desire in your heart. At the same time, he doesn''t say anything to you. Ma Guangming didn''t expect today''s conversation to take down the new drug, but he had a kind of confidence that he could get some care as long as he was in Shuya. Don''t ask him why he thinks so. Anyway, he just thinks. So confident that Ma Guangming was so smart that he was mistaken by his intelligence and missed a batch of new drugs from Huakang, which he wanted most! "By the way, Li Shao..." Ma Guangming suddenly remembered something. "If you''re not busy, can you do me a favor?" "Huh?" Li Yunze frowned slightly. "Well, Dr. he has been studying a subject recently. He is a little troublesome, but he is very stubborn and refuses to ask for help..." Ma Guangming opened his eyes and lied. "I heard that when you were at school, you worked as her teaching assistant and you cooperated in the operation. If you come forward, I think..." Ma Guangming wanted to stop talking. While observing Li Yunze''s expression, he thought whether to continue. Unfortunately, Li Yunze didn''t have too many expressions on his face. It didn''t seem to refuse, but it didn''t seem to agree. "Li Shao, look..." Ma Guangming asked again carefully. Li Yunze raised his hand and looked at the time, "this point..." "Oh, I have an appointment with the president of the second hospital. If Li Shao doesn''t dislike it, I''ll eat it here?" Ma Guangming immediately vacated his position. "Wait a minute, I''ll ask the Secretary to deliver dinner... Li Shao, don''t worry. You''ll keep your mouth shut about what you teach doctor he privately." Li Yunze just smiled at the corners of his mouth. There was no temperature at all. ¡­¡­ He Yining was informed by Ma Guangming''s secretary. She looked at the time. It was almost noon, and some were reluctant to find Ma Guangming. She was afraid. Later, Ma Guangming talked and delayed Li Yunze to come to her. Why did Ning angrily knock on the door of the office and then push the door in When she saw Li Yunze sitting there, she was stunned and couldn''t react for a while. "Dean, how did you change your appearance..." why Ning Leng said. Li Yunze twisted his eyebrows. "Is that short fat man as handsome as me? Is he as stylish as me? What is the appearance change..." He Yining immediately smiled, "I''m teasing you!" Then she went into the office and looked around. Sure enough, she didn''t see Ma Guangming. "Li Yunze, did you let our dean ''take advantage'' again in order to come here?" He Yining stood in front of Li Yunze. Li Yunze looked at why Yining and still didn''t withdraw his ruddy eyes. Without saying anything, he fished her into his arms and hugged her The soft body showed the faint aroma of he Yining. Many nights, he held her and let her bloom under him. At that moment, her tight voice and collapsed crying made his guilt expand infinitely. "Yining, I don''t want to......" Li Yunze said in a trembling voice, "I don''t know why, why do we come so secretly, we don''t need it!" He Yining felt the wandering breath on Li Yunze. She put her arms around his waist and gently opened her mouth: "because you want to know something..." "I don''t want to know!" Li Yunze said gnashing his teeth. He doesn''t want to check, go to the fucking truth At this moment, he looked at Yining''s red eyes and held her body. He just wanted to love madly regardless of everything. Even if, in the end, the mountains will fall apart. He Yining was silent. She felt that it was because her mood at that time affected Li Yunze. "Li Yunze..." he Yining shouted softly. "Yes!" Li Yunze answered. He Yining thought about it and asked, "what do you want to ask Qu Weiwei? Can you tell me?" Chapter 1399 Why did Ning Wei distance herself from Li Yunze? She raised her eyes and looked up at Li Yunze''s line of sight. "If it''s something later, I don''t know. I know everything before." Suddenly, why Ning frowned, drooped his eyes and tilted his mouth, "but some don''t know." Her voice was a little murmured, obviously with a touch of complex emotion. As if angry, as if sneering, or... Dislike. "Oh?" Li Yunze heard softly, and his eyes looked deeply at he Yining. He almost blurted out and wanted to ask what happened to Yining''s parents when she came to him on the day of the car accident? However, after the words turned in his mouth, Li Yunze still endured. He couldn''t bear to tear Yining''s wound "Hey, what do you want to know?" He Yining asked. Li Yunze''s eyes deepened. After a while, he slowly said, "was it you that Qu Weiwei had a car accident?" He Yining didn''t expect Li Yunze to ask this. He wrinkled his nose and looked sideways. He hummed in his nose and didn''t speak. Li Yunze sighed and pulled he Yining back into his arms, "I''m sorry!" "Why do you tell me you''re sorry..." he Yining muttered. "I didn''t believe you, so I''m sorry!" Li Yunze spoke softly. He is not a person who doesn''t like to admit mistakes, but whether he cares about the other party and whether it''s necessary. Why should I smile at the corners of my mouth? My eyes are full of smiles, "I''m generous and forgive you." "Then I have to thank you for your generosity?" "Must!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Li Yunze smiled, and he Yining also smiled. His silly Ning, he just slightly deviated from the topic, and she forgot what she just wanted to ask. Just because he made her happy Li Yunze and he Yining had dinner in Ma Guangming''s office. The autumn afternoon sunshine was lazily projected in because of the clouds. It''s not very hot, but it''s full of warm smell. If, the hugging and kissing under the umbrella is romantic. So... At the moment, the lunch accompanied by the sunshine at noon is happy. Li Yunze didn''t ask what he Yining wanted to say. He always felt that it was too cruel for her ¡­¡­ "Boss, this is the town..." Lu fan stopped at the roadside, looked at the market in front and said, "sister-in-law Feng has been living in this town since she left her home." "Who do you usually contact?" Jin shaosi looked ahead. Sister Feng was carrying a basket and selecting vegetables. Lu Fan looked at Jin shaosi from the rearview mirror. "There is little information that can be found. Sister Feng has a good popularity here. There is nothing surprising except a normal life and doing some scattered work." Jin shaosi still looked at sister-in-law Feng and said, "sister-in-law Feng is very kind to Yining. Many times, others are praising Qu Weiwei, but she said with a smile that Yining is true." When Jin shaosi said this, Lu Fan suddenly remembered something and said, "in addition, I don''t know if it''s useful." Jin shaosi took back his sight and looked at Lu Fan. "It seems that Qu Weiwei just returned home. When she was here, she argued with sister-in-law Feng one night..." Lu Fan said. "The sound insulation of the house here is not so good, so someone heard it." "What?" "It seems to say..." Lu Fan pondered slightly. "It seems that Qu Weiwei suspects that miss he is sister-in-law Feng''s daughter." As soon as Jin shaosi heard this, he immediately sneered, "why, does she think she has been switched? Is she the eldest lady of what family?" "I don''t know if it''s angry..." said Lu Fan. "Boss just said that I suddenly thought of this thing because of sister-in-law Feng''s attitude towards miss he." Paused, "could it be that Qu Weiwei subconsciously thought about it and gradually fixed her thinking." "You mean, from fantasy to self affirmation?!" Jin shaosi is light. Lu Fan nodded, "if that''s the case, there will be an extreme imbalance in her heart, and she can understand why Qu Weiwei lived more like a rich family daughter than Miss He when she was a child." Jin shaosi''s eyes were deep. He agreed with Lu Fan''s words. In addition, in the past, he naturally paid more attention to Yining''s mind. Because Qu Weiwei covered up Yining''s light, he always bothered her... Especially after breaking the advertisement and knowing her vanity. "Yining is very much like his wife, so Qu Weiwei''s hypothesis is not tenable. She is a fantasy." Jin shaosi said faintly, "look back and find a way to set sister-in-law Feng''s words and see what the so-called ''that thing'' was." "OK." Lu Fan answered clearly. Now, whether Jin shaosi or Li Yunze comes forward, it will attract Qu Weiwei''s attention and be more difficult. But if the party pretending to investigate the matter in that year, there may be different gains. ¡­¡­ At the weekend, Jane Mo originally wanted to make an appointment with he Yining and 11 to the villa for barbecue, and make a good match between Li Yunze and her. But because the one in his stomach was a little restless, Gu didn''t want Jane Mo to worry too much and let him postpone the time. "Mom, uncle Si calls!" Take the cell phone pad one by one and walk to he Yining. Why did Ning wash his hands and take over the mobile phone, "ace?" "I''ll go to your side and pick you up and have dinner with one by one..." Jin shaosi said softly. "The weather is colder again. I''ll take one by one to buy clothes." "I just bought a lot yesterday..." he Yining said. "Li Yunze bought it?" "Hmm..." he Yining looked up at her, his eyes shining, and felt guilty. Since Li Yunze knew that one by one was his daughter, his father is very qualified except that he can''t recognize each other because of acting. She doesn''t need to say anything. When she comes back every weekend, she can see gifts from him one by one. She basically didn''t worry about things in life "I want to have dinner together, too." He Yining didn''t refuse. After hanging up, he changed clothes with himself one by one and went out. At the same time, Jin shaosi''s car arrived. "Uncle Si, where shall we eat?" One by one, the snack asked curiously. "Didn''t you see the picture last time and say blossom map; TB recently launched a beautiful dessert?" One eye suddenly lit up, "Uncle Si is the best!" He Yining looked at Jin shaosi and chatted happily one by one, but his mind was the last time in blossom map; When TB, she splashed the glass of water in Yunze Because of the sudden "car accident", he also forgot to settle with her! He Yining felt a little proud, but he didn''t expect to come to blossom map today; TB, she unexpectedly met Li Yunze again Chapter 1400 "Mom, it''s the uncle!" Seeing Li Yunze one by one, he said in a small mood, "Why are there other aunts around him? Hum!" One by one, she looked at Qu Weiwei obliquely, her obvious small mouth pouted slightly, and her small face was full of disgust. It''s not as good-looking as my mother at all. Isn''t that uncle going to be with my mother?! Thinking about it one by one, I was a little lost. Although she didn''t see this uncle pick her up during this time, she was very happy and looked forward to the gifts waiting at home every week. But why did he eat with other women?! One by one, he looked at Li Yunze discontentedly and instinctively found an excuse However, she and her mother also eat with Uncle Si, and her mother and uncle Si have no further development. It is possible that the uncle just eats "Don''t we also have uncle Si?" Why rather "indifferently" glanced at Li Yunze. At that moment, they exchanged a lot of information in a moment. Jin shaosi looked at Li Yunze coldly, "Li Shao also came to dinner?" "What a coincidence..." Qu Weiwei was going to talk to he Yining, but she happened to take Jin shaosi''s words. "Miss Qu and I have no luck at all." Jin shaosi said coldly, took back his sight, looked at he Yining and said, "let''s go in!" As he spoke, he leaned over as if to give Li Yunze eye medicine, picked them up one by one, directly took he Yining''s hand and entered the restaurant. He Yining didn''t expect Jin shaosi to do so, and secretly complained. It''s over She could feel that Li Yunze''s eyes fell behind he Yining. It seemed that Li Yunze was depressed because of one by one. In fact, it was because... She was held by ACE. "It seems that Yining has a choice." Qu Weiwei seemed to open her mouth inadvertently. "Change places!" Jin shaosi''s face was shrouded in haze and turned directly into the car. Qu Weiwei looked at the back of he Yining who had just entered the restaurant, sneered and got on the co pilot. Timely, Li Yunze is dialing the phone Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze with some doubts. She saw him put his mobile phone in his ear, his eyes fell in front, and the lines of her face were tight. "What?" Mo Shaochen answered the phone. "If I want to get custody back," Li Yunze said with deep eyes, "according to the current situation, what''s the odds?" Mo Shaochen was slightly stunned and couldn''t respond to Li Yunze''s words. What''s going on? "Yunze, what''s the matter?" Mo Shaochen asked, "you and Yining are not..." "I can''t get together, but I want custody one by one." Li Yunze spoke indifferently. Mo Shaochen was silent and said, "your economic conditions are better than Yining. In this regard, you have advantages. You can be a mother. With a job, you have the financial ability to raise children. Therefore, the judge will favor the woman." Li Yunze frowned slightly and listened to Mo Shaochen continue: "in addition, the judge will also consider the child''s wishes. Obviously, you don''t have favorable conditions in this regard." "Do you mean to let me give up?" Li Yunze''s voice was a little cold. Mo Shaochen sighed, "if you want, I''ll find a lawyer to call you, and I''m sure I can get the custody back." "OK, I''ll find you later!" Li Yunze said, "go back and drink." He hung up the phone and his temples moved because of "anger". "Yunze, is this really going to happen?" Qu Wei and a Ning may sigh in front of each other "Can you be a good mother?" Li Yunze suddenly turned his head and asked. "Ah?!" Qu Weiwei was stunned. Li Yunze didn''t repeat, just looked at Qu Weiwei and waited for her reaction. Qu Weiwei suddenly burst into a joyful light at the bottom of her eyes. "Yunze, what do you mean..." she paused, "do you want to be with me again?" Li Yunze took back his sight, "I have to come back, Weiwei. Although he Yining''s child is also my Li family''s child." "Don''t worry, I can." Qu Weiwei smiled. "I also like children very much... And if you don''t trust me, I can ask my mother to come up. You know, she takes good care of children and can make a lot of children''s favorite food." Li Yunze sneered. He didn''t know more about it before. He didn''t think that many things had turned black and white. Compared with Yining''s true nature and hidden love and hate, Qu Weiwei, you are really disgusting! Li Yunze looked sideways, "sister-in-law Feng?" "Yes!" Qu Weiwei smiled and nodded, "my mother is just idle. I''ll let her come up first and then study the preferences of the next one. When children have dependence, they are easy to get along with..." "Yes." Li Yunze answered, started the car and went to another restaurant. ¡­¡­ He Yining''s worry was correct. At that time, outside the restaurant, she made instant eye contact with Li Yunze, and she saw his "questioning"! She came to dinner with ACE today and didn''t report to him But what a coincidence?! They just arrived at the restaurant, Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei also arrived?! Most importantly, it''s the same restaurant! He Yining put the book on the shelf and turned his mouth when he returned to his room. The more he thought about it, the more he felt strange. "It must have been intentional..." he Ning murmured. He was about to close the bedroom door when suddenly there was a sound outside. He Yining frowned and wondered, and then went out to have a look Li Yunze still opened the door with the "stolen" key, with a look of asking questions. Why Ning suddenly widened his eyes and subconsciously looked at the room one by one. She forgot that she went to bed more than an hour ago. "Why are you here?!" Why would you rather lower your voice. 11. When he was at home, Li Yunze never came. Li Yunze walked over. Just when he Yining wanted to ask something, he pushed her into the bedroom. Then after closing the door, he leaned her against the door and kissed her "Li... Um..." Kiss, with a punitive siege strategy, does not give he Yining any chance to resist. Li Yunze kissed he Yining fiercely. Just when she couldn''t breathe, she let go of her lips, buried her head in her neck and vaguely gnawed at her skin "Li Yunze... Um..." He Yining felt uncomfortable being provoked, but Li Yunze''s last step didn''t make her perfect. She was angry and wanted to push Li Yunze away, but unfortunately, she was too weak to say, but she acted like a shy desire to refuse and welcome "Li..." "Mom!" Just when he Yining couldn''t stand it, suddenly there was a knock on the door, with a slightly choking voice one by one. Chapter 1401 Li Yunze was already on the line and had to send, but his daughter was outside, knocking at the door and shouting "Mom". He Yining worried one by one, pushed Li Yunze, said in a low voice, "you hide first!" Li Yunze sighed in his heart What a pit father''s daughter?! Li Yunze suddenly wondered if Beichen''s son had cheated him?! He Yining answered one by one and hurriedly packed up his clothes. His face was crimson and stared at Li Yunze before opening the door, "what''s the matter, one by one?" "Mom..." one by one, when he Yining squatted down, he came forward and hugged her neck. His small mouth shriveled and said, "I dreamed that my mother didn''t want to give one by one and gave them to others..." He choked in his voice, but he was strong and didn''t want to reveal his emotions. He Yining held one by one''s small body and pulled up with heart pain. "Mom won''t want one by one..." he Yining said softly while patting one by one on the back. "Mom won''t give one to others." - why is the little arm a little tighter. "If there is one thing that my mother will give to ''others'' one by one, then my mother must also give to that person..." why Ning''s voice is shallow and soothing from my mother. Her eyes fell in front, and it was soft and full of maternal love. If there is one day, it must be that she and 11 can stand on Li Yunze''s body openly. It must be that she married Li Yunze with 11 Li Yunze leaned against the wall and listened to the dialogue between mother and daughter. His heart was very sour. He had too much guilt, especially the uneasiness of listening to one by one, and Yining''s comfort. His eyebrows and heart twisted together. Head, slowly lean against the wall. Li Yunze looked out of the window with deep eyes. In the gap of the unbroken curtain, his soft eyes were slightly covered by the clouds and came in It was quiet, but Li Yunze felt the surging waves in his heart. He Yining went to the second bedroom one by one and coaxed her to sleep. It was half an hour later. He Yining wanted to get up, but he grabbed her subconsciously with one small hand. She looked at one by one who didn''t sleep well. Finally, she simply didn''t get up and stayed with one by one until she fell asleep Many times, it seems that she is heartless and occasionally make complaints about her. But He Yining knows that she is very insecure. Perhaps, this is a single parent family, there is no way to give. Especially girls from single parent families Li Yunze cleaned up his turbulent mood before he left the master bedroom and went to the bedroom one by one. Hold he Yining''s arms one by one and sleep quietly. Why is Ning Xu too sleepy? Accompany him and enter the dream Li Yunze gently took the small chair on one side and sat down beside the bed, looking at the sleeping mother and daughter with soft eyes. This was the first time that he looked at him like this. Why should he be peaceful and one by one. Li Yunze couldn''t help but gradually overflow a shallow smile. His voice was very light and said softly: "one by one, mom won''t want you, dad will accept you and mom together..." He raised his hand, a little excited with fear, gently stroked his daughter''s face, "so, don''t worry one by one, huh?!" No one answered Li Yunze, but at this moment, he was unprecedented happy and satisfied. Also more determined, he Yining ruled out possible dangers, and let her and one by one be happy and worry free by his side. ¡­¡­ Under the light, sister-in-law Feng held a photo album and looked at it again and again. She doesn''t know how many times she has looked through this album and where each photo is located. She can clearly find it in her mind Dyed hands, gently across a photo. In the photo, two girls who look only five or six years old stand together, wearing beautiful girlfriends'' clothes and smiling brightly. Sister-in-law Feng sighed gently and said, "Weiwei, mom really doesn''t want to see the relationship between you and miss become like this... If it''s not who, how can you be now?" With another sigh, sister-in-law Feng closed the album, got up, put it away and went to bed. After living here alone for so many years, sister-in-law Feng thought she could slowly forget her home, but time didn''t wear away the memory, but deepened the pain. At first, if it weren''t for her to go to the master and wife, maybe they wouldn''t go after the young lady and have a car accident Sister-in-law Feng frowned sadly, and her closed eyes trembled slightly in the dark. Every night, she sleeps restlessly, but what can she do?! When the sun tore the darkness, sister-in-law Feng''s biological clock didn''t stop ringing because she slept late. Get up, wash, go to the market to buy some fresh vegetables and go home. This has almost become the trajectory of her daily life Sister-in-law Feng walked back with her vegetable basket hanging her eyes. She felt that someone was coming in front of her. She subconsciously sideways and wanted to go around. But where she went, the figure was there, as if on purpose. Sister-in-law Feng stopped and raised her eyes. She looked at the casual man with a duck tongue hat in front of her, a circle of beard on her mouth and some decadence. "Excuse me, what''s up?" The man put his hands in his clothes pocket, raised his head slightly, showed his eyes under the cap, looked at sister-in-law Feng and asked, "are you sister-in-law Feng?" Sister Feng frowned, "excuse me, are you..." "Is it convenient to ask you something?" The man''s voice has no temperature. "What''s the matter?" Sister Feng frowned. "Besides, who are you? Do I know you?" "I know you..." the man narrowed his eyes gently and then slowly opened his mouth. "Is there a quiet place? I''m afraid it''s inconvenient to talk here." Sister-in-law Feng was a little nervous. She looked around. On the quiet road, only she and the man said, "if there''s anything, just say it here." The man moved slightly, and sister-in-law Feng subconsciously stepped back, "you, what are you going to do?" Sister-in-law Feng took another step back and regretted coming home from this alley. However, for so many years, she has gone like this, and nothing has happened "What do you want to ask? Just ask here. If you don''t want to ask, I''m sorry, I have something else to do..." sister-in-law Feng said, trying to leave over the man. The man sneered and stopped sister-in-law Feng''s way. "Where were you then? I think you knew something?" He said in a chilly voice, "that''s his secret!" Chapter 1402 Sister-in-law Feng''s face changed instantly. Instinctively, the "sin" that has haunted her every day for so many years has crossed her mind. "You, who are you?" Sister-in-law Feng''s voice trembled uncontrollably, "what happened that year, I, I don''t know." "Don''t know?" The man tilted his head, with a dangerous sneer on his mouth, "I heard that you caused the death of he Tianshu and Meng ya!" With a bang, the basket in sister-in-law Feng''s hand fell to the ground. Her face became more and more ugly. She looked at the man in horror and said nervously, "I don''t know what you... What you say... I don''t know anything." Then, sister-in-law Feng didn''t have time to pick up the basket and wanted to leave in a hurry. Unfortunately, the man didn''t give her a chance to leave. When she moved, he grabbed her. "Don''t know?" The man sneered, "in those days, didn''t you go to tell he Tianshu why he Ning knew something, and then he Tianshu went to catch up and had a car accident?" "No, I really don''t know!" Sister-in-law Feng had fear in her eyes and even resisted to mention the events of that year. "Hum," the man snorted coldly and threw sister-in-law Feng to the wall, "don''t think no one saw it. At the beginning, someone who went to see the new grapes was under the grape rack and clearly heard what you said to he Tianshu..." "I really don''t know!" Sister-in-law Feng stressed again, "I don''t know what it is. I just went to the master after hearing what the young lady said. I was afraid of an accident..." The man looked at sister-in-law Feng with deep eyes. Her eyes were full of guilt, mixed with a trace of loss. "I don''t know what happened..." sister-in-law Feng said sadly. "If I knew there would be a car accident, I wouldn''t say that anyway." Her eyes were red. "At the beginning, I shouldn''t have told the master when the young lady went to find Li Shao." "You don''t know, how is it possible? You don''t know, you go to them and say?" The man forced each other step by step, "why would you rather go to find Li Yunze? Wasn''t it common at that time? Why did you have to go to find he Tianshu? Ah?!" The retort left sister-in-law Feng speechless. At first, she just heard that the young lady answered the phone and hurried to find Li Yunze. Originally, she didn''t care about Miss. I don''t know who said a few words. What lady knows the secret and wants to confront Li Yunze? What? Do you want to tell the master about it? What if something happens? What''s the mess? Anyway, after the young lady goes to Li Yunze, not only will there be danger to any family, but the young lady and Li Yunze may be enemies all their lives. She knows the young lady''s feelings for Li Yunze. If she is an enemy, the young lady must have no way to live Therefore, without much thought, she went to the master and told the young lady what secrets she knew. She wanted to confront Li Shao and might become an enemy. The faces of the master and wife turned white immediately. They didn''t even have time to ask more questions. They hurriedly drove away from the vineyard and went after the young lady Then there was a car accident. "If you want to know that secret, I really don''t know..." sister-in-law Feng said weakly, "what do you want me to say about the things you don''t know?" The man felt that sister-in-law Feng''s words didn''t look like a lie, but since he didn''t know, why could he Tianshu go after him? Suddenly footsteps came from the alley. Then someone smiled and said hello, "Sister Feng, someone came to see you in the town?!" Sister-in-law Feng looked at the people and hurriedly said, "just inquire about things. By the way, you go to the field?" "Yes!" "I''m just going to buy some strawberries. I''ll go with you..." sister-in-law Feng glanced at the man, hurried to get the basket that fell on the ground and left the alley with those people. The man waited until sister-in-law Feng disappeared before he took out his mobile phone. "Boss, it''s almost what you guessed." The man said, "sister-in-law Feng should only be used." Jin shaosi slightly twisted his eyebrows, and the bottom of his eyes was so deep that people couldn''t see to the end. Qu Weiwei seemed to know only that thing, but she didn''t know what it was. Now, so is sister-in-law Feng! Then who was behind the net? Yining knows the secret, or is it just because Qu Weiwei went to Li Yunze and was used? So, what''s the secret! ¡­¡­ Time passed day by day, and it was the Mid Autumn Festival in the twinkling of an eye. "Yunze, what are your plans for tomorrow''s Mid Autumn Festival?" Qu Weiwei smiled at Li Yunze. "If you don''t have activities, can you accompany me to a cocktail party?" "I have an appointment with Beichen tomorrow." Li Yunze spoke faintly. Qu Weiwei shrugged. "Forget it. I''ll go back by myself." As she said this, she sat down opposite Li Yunze and saw the custody power of attorney placed aside. "I called my mother," Qu Weiwei said with a touch of joy at the bottom of her eyes, but she covered it up very well. "She came up after the Mid Autumn Festival." "Yes." Li Yunze answered, "there is no accident, and the custody lawsuit is also going on after the Mid Autumn Festival..." "I hope I can get along with my children one by one." Qu Weiwei unconsciously smiled at the corners of her mouth. Li Yunze looked at Qu Weiwei with his eyes slightly deep, and hissed coldly. My daughter, are you qualified to touch?! Thinking, there was a knock at the door. The head nurse came in, "Li Shao, God is waiting for your meeting. Do you need to delay it?" Said, if she had a point, she looked at Qu Weiwei. "I have something else to do. Let''s go first..." Qu Weiwei got up. "You''re busy first." "Yes." Li Yunze answered and looked at Qu Weiwei. After she left, the corners of her mouth crossed with a sneer. "I''ve never seen Li Shao refuse people in such a circuitous way." The head nurse joked. Just now, at the moment when Qu Weiwei entered the door, Li Yunze sent a text message to the head nurse and asked her to come to him in ten minutes "You know too much and will be killed!" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. The head nurse smiled, made a gesture of pulling his mouth, and then turned and left Li Yunze''s office. Li Yunze''s eyes fell on the custody power of attorney, secretly sneered and picked up It''s just a cover on the drug list! ¡­¡­ Qu Weiwei opened the door and got on the bus. She heard a voice from behind, "do you know the car opposite?" "Ah?!" Qu Weiwei was frightened and suddenly turned back. She saw Meng Yi, "Why are you in the car?" "When you pass by, come in and look around. Your car is coming up." Meng Yi said and asked, "do you know that car?" Qu Weiwei stared angrily at Meng Yi before looking at the car, "Li Yunze''s!" "Li Yunze''s?!" Meng Yi made a noise and suddenly a scene flashed in his mind. That time, on the road near Shuya, the car stopped at the roadside and two people kissed under a big umbrella Chapter 1403 If the car belongs to Li Yunze, there must be one Li Yunze among the two people under the umbrella. And that woman "Does Li Yunze usually borrow his car?" Meng Yi asked. Qu Weiwei looked at Meng Yi curiously. She didn''t know what he was asking. She just replied: "generally, they don''t. people like them have the same car as their own women. If they borrow it, they won''t drive it again!" Whether Li Yunze or Gu Beichen, their circle has reached a peak. Everyone has great ability. How can they need to borrow a car?! Meng Yi looked at the car in front of him with a faint vision, and a trace of possibility crossed his mind. "Meng Yi, what''s the matter?" Qu Weiwei asked. Meng Yi took back his eyes and didn''t directly say his speculation. He just said, "let''s go first!" Qu Weiwei looked at Meng Yi curiously, thought about it, and didn''t continue to ask. He didn''t say that there should be something that hasn''t been figured out yet. Qu Weiwei started the car and left the hospital, "where to go?" "Take me back." "OK." Qu Weiwei answered, sent Meng Yi back to his temporary place in Los Angeles. After Meng Yi returned to the house, he sat on the sofa, peeling the apple while his mind was running fast. When there was only one apple left in the fruit plate, his action suddenly stopped. As long as we determine what clothes he Yining wears that day, we can know whether the two people under the umbrella that day are Li Yunze and he Yining. If you remember correctly, that day is the day to register for the doctor''s qualification certificate. Meng Yi put down his fruit knife and apple, took his mobile phone and called out a number, "do me a favor?" "What?" "Check the date and monitor it at the door of the health and Family Planning Commission..." Meng Yi said. "Just give me the monitoring before 4 p.m. that day." "The old rule is that the fee will be charged to my account." "Yes!" Meng Yi answered and hung up the phone, then transferred the money to the other party''s account. ¡­¡­ The next day is the Mid Autumn Festival. The weather in L.C. is especially awesome on this day. The autumn wind is very slow and the sunshine is very warm. Jane Mo was worried about why to be peaceful. Thinking of such a reunion day, it was too desolate for her to live one by one, so she set up a barbecue rack in the villa, called her and one by one, and called Li Yunze at the same time. Li Yunze couldn''t spend the reunion festival with he Yining''s mother and daughter openly because of acting. Jian Mo gave an opportunity and naturally agreed with joy. Li Yunze leaned on the car with his arms around his chest, and his sight fell in front In the sun, Jian Mo holds his bulging belly. Gu Beichen kneels on one knee and rides Jian Jie around his neck. He kisses Jian Mo''s belly and Xiao Jie kisses Jian Mo happily. A family of four, nothing to consider, at this moment, it looks so beautiful. The beauty makes people feel that God is too cruel to Jian Mo and Gu Beichen Cruel for many years, the whole family has lost a teenager like Meiyu! Why would you rather hold one by one''s hand and look at this scene? The softness of the bottom of your eyes then turns into a smile at the corners of your mouth. Until, and Li Yunze seemed to have a sharp opposite look. At this moment, he Yining seemed to hypnotize himself and told himself that he was not a person who gave up everything for love However, she wanted to establish good ideas one by one, but she lost to her own heart. One by one, Jian Jie shouted to play. He Yining saw Li Yunze coming. "I don''t want to argue or argue with you today," he said indifferently. "Please keep your attitude." Before Li Yunze opened his mouth, he was not lightly choked. He opened his mouth slightly and watched her go to Gu Beichen and Jian mo ¡°¡­¡­¡± Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth and said in a gnashing of teeth: "he Yining, now here in Beichen, do you need to continue to play with me?" Why Ning looked back at Li Yunze at the right time. His eyes blinked quickly and flashed a touch of cunning. It seems to say: of course... After all, Beichen and Momo don''t know we''re acting? I''m a person who plays a full set! In fact, he Yining is not worried about what Gu Beichen and Jian Mo will see through. But afraid that one by one will be sensitive to find that the relationship between her and Li Yunze is not what she thought in her little mind. For example... Li Yunze just stared at her. In fact, he looked at her affectionately! Children can''t hide their worries, but she doesn''t want to be interrupted after doing so much In fact, Li Yunze didn''t say, she could guess vaguely. He wants to find out the cause of the car accident between his father and mother! He Yining''s heart suddenly wrenched. When she looked at her father and mother covered with blood and lay in the emergency room without any signs of life, her pain at that moment can be clearly remembered now. Last time in the winery, I overheard what a Lang said. She didn''t dare to think, even afraid to think. Because of her greed, Li Ze admitted to be with her But when Qu Weiwei believed Li Yunze when he started to play with her, he would open the topic every time she asked Li Yunze what she wanted to know. Once she doesn''t care, twice she doesn''t care, three times... If she doesn''t think about why, how can she love Li Yunze?! In fact, she couldn''t figure it out later. The quarrel between her and Li Yunze, as well as her doing so many unbearable things, her father and mother let her go. Why did she go to Li Yunze that time, and her father and mother would chase her?! Why is Ning''s heart full of self blame? At that time, he was too angry because he knew that "Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei were together". On the way, her father called, but she went to gallop to question Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei. She didn''t care about the phone at all. ¡­¡­ Meng Yi''s mobile phone rang. He looked at the call and picked it up. He put it in his ear and heard the other party say, "I sent the surveillance at the door of the Wei and Family Planning Commission to your mailbox that day. Remember to find me next time you have something to do!" "Good!" Meng Yi answered, hung up the phone, turned on the computer and entered the mailbox. Download video, play Meng Yi is cutting the apple while watching the video. He doesn''t look at the apple, but he can skillfully keep the apple skin from beginning to end, and it''s very thin. Suddenly Meng Yi''s actions stopped. He put down the fruit knife and took the mouse to play back. Pause! On the picture, why Ning came out of the building of the health and Family Planning Commission with an umbrella in her hand. She slightly raised her umbrella and stopped, as if thinking about something Meng Yi''s eyes gradually narrowed. That day, the women who kissed on the roadside wore the same clothes as he Yining. Moreover, the umbrella that fell on the ground is the lattice umbrella that why Ning is holding in his hand at the moment When Meng Yi''s eyes narrowed into a gap, how did they open, and two cold and fierce lights came out from the bottom of his eyes. A face, but also because of anger, and ferocious convulsions, only to hear him gnash his teeth and squeeze out a few words, "it''s all fake!" Chapter 1404 It''s a satisfying day for people who have family and friends. Jian Mo and he Yining chatted. They seemed to have the same experience, but they seemed different. Jianmo admires Jianmo''s atmosphere, toughness and persistence. And love, no matter right or wrong or how to be right, is yearning and can''t be controlled by yourself Love is love. "Gossip is only temporary," Jian Mo gently stroked his bulging stomach, and his eyes fell on Gu Beichen, who was wearing sportswear and playing badminton with Li Yunze. "He and I... Are a lifetime!" He Yining looked at Jian Mo and was deeply shocked by this woman. Whether she was in the hospital more than four years ago or more than four years later, she returned with Jane Jie. She clearly knows what she wants and what she needs. Why should Ning''s mouth gently raise a shallow smile, take back his sight and fall on Li Yunze. Two equally excellent men can be proud in their respective fields. At the moment, they are full of youthful vitality and bring hope Yunze, thank you for being with me many years later. Thank you for worrying so much about my business Love is never equal. You hold up a day for me. What I can repay you is still the unstoppable love. Why do you smile gently at the corners of your mouth? Your eyes are full of affection, but such affection is gradually pressed down by a touch of shallow thoughts. Mo Mo is right. No matter what gossip he has, Mo Mo and Beichen are things of a lifetime. And what about her?! No matter what people all over the world think of the feelings between her and Li Yunze, even if everyone thinks they "run counter", as long as she knows that Li Yunze loves her now, it''s enough! Jane Mo looked at he Yining with a soft and ethereal smile on her face. Such an expression, Jane Mo is very clear, it is a kind of infatuation. Jian Mo took another look at Li Yunze, who was stuck with Gu Beichen, and gently fanned his eyelashes. "Serious men are very charming, and men who are full of sweat under sports are more charming." "Yes..." why Ning answered unconsciously. Jian Mo smiled, "ah Chen and Yunze grew up together since childhood. They know each other too well..." That is, playing badminton, each other back and forth so many times, there is no way to take down each other. "It feels good." Why rather speak slowly, "calm and peaceful, people can''t bear to break this moment." "Yes..." Jane Mo felt the little guy in her stomach kick her, and a maternal smile spread from the corners of her mouth, "... It''s good!" Two women are infatuated with the two men waving sweat in the sun. Calm and peaceful, beautiful people forget the flow of time. But at the moment, he Yining and Jian Mo didn''t expect that the beauty of this moment would be broken so quickly No matter he Yining or Jian Mo! ¡­¡­ Qu Weiwei answered Meng Yi''s phone and rushed to his side. "Why are you calling me here in such a hurry?" Qu Weiwei asked, "I''m going to a party in the evening. I''m going to do modeling later." "Let you see something." Meng Yi didn''t explain much. He just took the computer and clicked on the cut video. "Why would you rather show me the video of going to the Wei and family planning commission?" Qu Weiwei looked at her and frowned slightly. "Should she sign up for the examination of the licensed doctor''s qualification certificate?!" "Yes." Qu Weiwei didn''t understand. She looked at Meng Yi suspiciously, "why Yining is a doctor. What''s strange about her entering here?" The most important thing is that Meng Yi hurriedly called her over to see this?! Meng Yi didn''t change his face, but slowly said, "that day, I went to work near Shuya. On a nearby side road, I saw the car I asked you yesterday." Qu Weiwei frowned and her heart suddenly lifted up, as if she had a hunch of something, "then?" "When I passed by that day, I just glanced at the car," Meng Yi said coldly. "The most important thing is that when I saw it, there were two people next to the car under the umbrella, either kissing or holding together." Qu Weiwei''s hand has gradually clenched, "you mean, Li Yunze and he Yining!" "Clothes..." Meng Yi pointed to the freeze frame picture on the computer screen, "that''s it, and the umbrella falling on the ground is the same." He looked at Qu Weiwei again. "The car belongs to Li Yunze. What do you think is the probability that those two people are not them?" Qu Weiwei clenched her teeth tightly and stared at the computer screen, as if to see a hole in the picture. "It''s all scams..." Qu Weiwei gnashed her teeth and squeezed out words. Her eyes were completely disappointed and angry. "It''s all scams!" Meng Yi pulls back his hand, looks at Qu Weiwei, who is already on the edge of madness, and slowly opens his mouth: "I can''t figure out why they want to play?" Qu Weiwei stared at her scarlet eyes and her brain was a little crashed at the moment. "Li Yunze and why would they rather play for who? For what?" Meng Yi frowned, "I can''t make you think they have a bad relationship. But what''s the point?" Qu Weiwei looks at Meng Yi and her eyes keep turning. She can''t figure it out. "Unless..." Meng Yi narrowed his eyes slowly, "unless you have something they want or want to know, but it''s not easy to ask you directly." After that, Meng Yi stared at Qu Weiwei and asked, "do you have anything to do with them?" Qu Weiwei drooped her shoulders weakly. The scam between Li Yunze and he Yining was like a big stick, hitting her heart hard. It''s so bloody After a while, Qu Weiwei''s eyes suddenly gathered, and she stared at something in her mind. "Could it be the death of he Tianshu and Meng ya?" Qu Weiwei looked at Meng Yi, "if I have to say that there is any information I need to cheat me, all I can think of is this thing." Meng Yi''s deep eyes flashed a startled light, "it''s really possible." "Yes, after all, why did Ning come to Li Yunze and me after hearing about it..." Qu Weiwei''s breathing was slightly not smooth, "do they think I know about it?!" "I can''t figure out what it is. He family and Li Yunze have unspeakable involvement, and even make he Tianshu so afraid?" Qu Weiwei''s eyes floated everywhere, full of anger, "but no matter what it is, why should Li Yunze and Ning play with me like this?!" Qu Weiwei was too angry and her breath was unstable. Her chest rose and fell, and her eyes burst out a shocking light. That light is full of hatred that can''t be waved away! "Li yunning, he yunning..." Qu Weiwei squeezed out the names of the two people from her teeth. Her eyes were filled with hatred, which became more intense. Then she just heard her gnashing her teeth and yelling, "I won''t make you feel so good --" Chapter 1405 "What are you looking at?" Li Jinxi frowned slightly when he saw Chen Yu looking at her up and down. Chen Yu falsely held his right elbow with his left hand, rubbed his chin with his right hand, frowned slightly and said, "have you noticed that you''ve been... A little fat lately!" Li Jinxi suddenly ''clattered'' in his heart, then stared at each other angrily, "Chen Yu, you have the ability to say that I''m fat..." Chen Yu secretly grinned and immediately changed into a wife slave and said, "Hey, how can my wife be fat? My wife is the best woman in the world. Where it should be convex, where it should be concave... Tut Tut, it''s... Perfect!" "Glib..." Li Jinxi rolled over his eyes, took the bag and said, "I''m going to the company and attend their own cocktail party in the evening..." She came forward and raised her finger on Chen Yu''s chin. "However, if you dare to go on the news tomorrow, I will..." Li Jinxi looked down at Chen Yu''s baby, with a queen like smile on his lips, "... Castrate you directly!" Chen shuddered and immediately grinned and said, "don''t worry, except you, all the other women in the world are men to me!" "Men can make a base..." Li Jinxi put a finger against Chen Yu who wanted to come over and kiss her. "Does anyone say that about their husband?" Chen Xuan rolled his eyes. Li Jinxi smiled and looked at the time, "well, I won''t talk to you, I''m leaving..." "I''m so good, don''t you kiss?" Li Jinxi kissed Chen Yu perfunctorily. Under his dissatisfaction, he left with a queen like step. People suddenly remember when they came to the door. "By the way, it''s estimated that old man Su''s birthday will be lively for his family. Remember to choose a gift later." "OK." Chen Yu answered and watched Li Jinxi leave before he changed his clothes and was ready to go to the company. After the Mid Autumn Festival, there are two music awards and some charity activities organized by Huaye. Although he doesn''t need to appear, there are some things to deal with. As soon as Chen Yu got on the bus, his mobile phone rang. He looked at the call, frowned slightly, and picked it up with resistance at the bottom of his eyes, "big brother." Chen Zhaobai answered and said, "there''s nothing else, just want to remind you..." he said with a slight squint in his eyes, "the last share of the ink palace will release the news to the Chen family." "Why?" Chen Yu was a little short of breath immediately. "Why?!" Chen Zhaobai sniffed coldly, "Chen Yu, no one can stay out of it all the time... You do it yourself." After his words, Chen Zhaobai didn''t give Chen Yu a chance to speak and hung up. Chen Yu''s face was slightly pale, and a pair of eyes fell in front through the windshield In the dark garage, the quiet heartbeat makes people hear clearly. This beating makes Chen Yu more and more uneasy before. "No, no..." Chen Yu tried to pull the corners of his mouth. His voice had no confidence and laughter in the past, and some were just dignified under uneasiness. "How is it possible? I... I''m just Chen except my surname Chen... So don''t scare myself, don''t!" Chen Yu closed her eyes and leaned powerlessly against the car seat. For a long time, she couldn''t recover. His happiness has just begun. He and Jinxi haven''t enjoyed life well If everything comes to an abrupt end, what will he do? What should Jinxi do?! Chen Yu''s closed eyelids trembled slightly, and his temples tightened tightly. The narrow space in the car was filled with unprecedented powerlessness ¡­¡­ He Yining looked at the time. "It''s getting late. I''ll go back one by one." "Let Yunze send you later?!" Jane Mo smiled and said, "he should take a bath and come out soon." "No..." why did Ning smile, "it''s not very convenient." Jane Mo''s lips opened slightly. Originally, she wanted to persuade, but what Gu Beichen said was that no matter how much others intervened in their affairs, they couldn''t figure it out by themselves. It was all in vain. "Well, I''ll ask the driver to take you and one by one." Why rather nodded. When Li Yunze came out, why did Ning he get on the bus one by one. "Not going to send them?" Gu Beichen asked. Li Yunze didn''t move. He just stood there and watched the car leave. He didn''t take back his sight for a long time, "Beichen..." "Yes." Gu Beichen''s eyes fell on Jian Mo who saw off why Ning car left, and the eagle''s eyes gradually softened. "If you were given another chance," Li Yunze looked back at Gu Beichen, "would you rather push her away and just want her to live well, regardless of whether silence is crazy with Jane Mo or just like before?" "Still." The simple two words are firm. Even though he regretted it, if he did it again, he would still be shackled by Zixiao because of silence, and he would still push Mo''er away. Men and women sometimes think differently. Women feel that even if they are crazy together for one day, they are willing to die the next day. But men are different. They want all the harm to be left to themselves, so that the people they love can be well Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly and looked at Li Yunze, "I heard Xiao Jing say that Qu Weiwei is back!" "Yes." When Li Yunze heard the name, he crossed it with some boredom. "She is not a simple person..." Gu Beichen said softly. "I didn''t care before, but now I know." Gu Beichen thin lips shallow Yang, "it seems that between you and Yining, I don''t need to worry." "Huh?" Li Yunze frowned slightly. Gu Beichen didn''t explain, "Yunze, love is a wonderful thing. If you don''t touch it, you''ll have it. If you touch it... You''ll be willing to destroy the sky and the earth." Li Yunze didn''t refute, but put a light smile on the corners of his mouth, "you know me, just as I know you!" He and Gu Beichen looked at each other, didn''t say anything, raised their steps and walked to the parking lot Yining, Beichen wants to give Jian Mo a peaceful world, and so do I! Fortunately, everything is in time I can still love you now! ¡­¡­ Qu Weiwei went directly to the flagship store from Meng Yi. She looked at her party dress and narrowed her eyes slightly. With a well kept figure, properly cared skin, exquisite makeup and appropriate clothes, she is definitely a charming woman Li Yunze, when you were with me, you were "forced" by everyone. But now I''ve been abroad for a few years and you''ve never heard of it. I come back, waiting for me is your breakup You are now with he Yining, for her, and even deceive my feelings for you! Qu Weiwei''s hand gradually clenched. She looked at herself in the mirror, her charming face was ferocious because of anger, slightly clenched her teeth and released her hand. "He Yining, do you think you can get Li Yunze?" Qu Weiwei put a sinister smile on the corner of her mouth, "I''ll tell you, dream!" Qu Weiwei slowly narrowed her eyes towards the mirror, and the malice of the fundus gradually spread to every nerve. "You are unkind to me. Don''t blame me for being unkind to you..." Qu Weiwei sneered, took back her sight, checked out and left the flagship store. Chapter 1406 Sitting in the car, Qu Weiwei''s eyes fell in front, narrowed her eyes slightly, and her face was completely indifferent. She took her handbag aside, took out her mobile phone and dialed sister-in-law Feng''s phone. "Weiwei," said sister-in-law Feng with a wrung eyebrow, "I said, I don''t want to go up. I live well in town, and it''s also suitable for old-age care." "I didn''t persuade you to come up." Qu Weiwei said, "Mom, I want to ask you, have you met any strange people to find you recently?" "What''s the matter? Did someone bother you?" As soon as sister-in-law Feng was nervous, she asked subconsciously. Qu Weiwei sneered at the bottom of her eyes, "I didn''t, I just suddenly felt uneasy..." Sister-in-law Feng was silent and said slowly, "Weiwei, I don''t want to go up. I don''t want to see the scenery and miss people." "Mom..." "Weiwei, if I hadn''t listened and talked, the master and wife wouldn''t have a car accident. I can''t forgive myself all my life." Sister-in-law Feng spoke. "What does that have to do with you?" Qu Weiwei gritted her teeth. "If it wasn''t for the ghost in their family, how could something happen?!" "Vivi!" Sister-in-law Feng twisted her eyebrows. "It''s because of your attitude that you think it''s your fault, so why would you rather drive and hit me?" Qu Weiwei asked sternly. Sister Feng stopped talking. "Even if you don''t want to come up, I was going to tell you today that you don''t have to come up." Qu Weiwei said, "I have something else here. Hang up first and go back to see you." "OK..." Qu Weiwei hung up the phone and a sneer crossed the corner of her mouth. Li Yunze, when you approach me, you don''t even hesitate to make me feel that there is a contradiction between you and he Yining. Is it for the things of that year? You like acting so much, let''s do it together Qu Weiwei sneered, started the car and went to the party. ¡­¡­ He Yining and 11 bought some vegetables in the small vegetable market at the door of the community before returning home. Although they are not hungry at the moment, why are they afraid to play for a while? If they are hungry, they can also make something to eat. "Aunt Zihan..." one by one suddenly broke away from he Yining''s hand and ran to Fang Zihan, who squatted in Asia. Why rather slightly frowned, "when did you come back? Didn''t Yan Yan say that you didn''t come back until the end of the month?" "I just came back today..." Fang Zihan was a little tired. "Thinking about the Mid Autumn Festival and the scorching heat on duty, you and one or two people, I''m very lonely, so let''s get together." He Yining looked at Fang Zihan shrewdly, because there were one by one, she didn''t say much, but opened the door. "Have you eaten yet?" He Yining asked, "I said lunch." "I got off the plane, put my luggage and came over, and then..." Fang Zihan shrugged, meaning they were not at home. "Are you a child?" He Yining frowned. "Just call me if you don''t know. There are so many small restaurants at the door of the community, can''t you have a meal first?!" "Go lazily!" "You''re so lazy!" "Hum!" He Yining scolded Fang Zihan while he Er had put down his things, took some vegetables to wash, and quickly made a bowl of tomato and egg noodles for Fang Zihan. Fang Zihan ate the hot noodles, "satisfied!" He Yining tilted his eyes angrily, looked at one by one in reading, and asked in a low voice, "come on, have you been abandoned? Or... Dumped?" "Do you look like my sister?" Fang Zihan turned his eyes, "what I think is to abandon others and dump..." Fang Zihan shut his mouth and looked at he Yining angrily, "OK, he Yining... You''ve learned abdominal darkness with Li Yunze these days Why Ning zhe smiled, "come on, what''s the situation?!" "It''s nothing, just being uncomfortable with a super annoying guy all day." When Fang Zihan thought of Pei Shengyao, the whole person was bad. Shit! She is a female paparazzi who insists on being the first female paparazzi and digging through the red, yellow and green things of celebrities. Why should she be caught in the army and do an interview?! Although doing such an interview is to cultivate sentiment and give yourself a high force. But she''s just a compulsive person. What kind of compulsion does she want?! She wants to be a paparazzi. From entering the journalism department, her wish is to be the first female paparazzi. Looking at Fang Zihan''s angry appearance, why would he rather lean forward and ask, "how can I find you uncomfortable?" "I said I wanted to be a paparazzi. I didn''t want to write a serious press release, so I couldn''t be happy." "Don''t believe it!" He Yining looked at Fang Zihan with a good face. "Do you say it yourself or are you going to let me extort a confession?" Fang Zihan ate noodles and pretended to be dead. "Equivalent exchange, I''ll tell you my current relationship with Li Yunze. You say this." "What''s your relationship with Li Yunze?" Fang Zihan immediately brightened his eyes with gossip. Sure enough He Yining glanced at them one by one and said quietly, "he and I are cheating Qu Weiwei." "Cheat Qu Weiwei, why?" Fang Zihan was a little surprised. "It''s a little complicated. Anyway, Li Yunze and I are fine now..." he Yining said, with a happy and sweet smile on his face. "Well, tell me about you!" When the topic turned to himself, Fang Zihan grinned secretly and whispered bitterly, "I said that when paparazzi, they can catch the cheating door or something. When men''s physiological reaction is seen, women can do some indescribable actions... When men take a bath to do, they can see... Well, will women be satisfied..." Looking at he Yining''s twitching face, Fang Zihan drooped his shoulders, "well, I was too excited, and then my brain twitched..." At the same time, Pei shengkey also told her that he... Could satisfy her! Enough for her to see! So she angrily carried the box... And ran back with no promise. ¡­¡­ The banquet Li Jinxi attended tonight is a charity event of the Mid Autumn Festival, CO sponsored by dream media. "Mr. Li, can you tell me..." "Sorry, it''s not convenient for me to disclose before the matter is finalized." No matter what the reporter asked, Li Jinxi returned it with a smile and Tai Chi. While not offending the media, no useful news was released. After answering a few questions, Li Jinxi and the media nodded and turned into the venue Just as her body did not enter the door of the meeting, a man in a waiter''s dress turned and went inside. "Li Jinxi has arrived." The waiter said to a man with his body on his back. The man glanced back slightly, then took out an SD card from his pocket, "wait, find a chance to give this to her... Remember, don''t leave a trace." "Good!" The waiter answered, took the SD card, turned and left the room. Chapter 1407 Li Jinxi found an SD card in her handbag. It had been several days. "What is this?" Li Jinxi frowned, "when did I put the company information card here?" Li Jinxi didn''t think much. She just thought that when she went to the party after she went to the company that day, she might throw the card into her handbag when she took the key or mobile phone. "Why is there no number?" Li Jinxi turned back and forth and twisted her eyebrows. Her company''s information card is usually numbered in order to quickly find the required information. Li Jinxi went to the study and planned to see what this card was When the talent came to the door of the study, she heard the mobile phone in the living room ring. She turned back, took the mobile phone and picked it up, "Yunze, when will you come?" "I just got out of the hospital at the moment. Let''s see if you are in the company or at home." Li Yunze turned the steering wheel. "At home, you come to me at home." "What on earth is so mysterious that you can''t say it on the phone?" Li Yunze asked. Li Jinxi glanced down, "you''ll know when you come." "Yes." Li Yunze hung up. Li Jinxi breathed a long sigh of relief and gently stroked his lower abdomen. It''s obvious that it''s getting up again in the past two days. Although it''s late autumn and you can wear clothes to cover it up, there''s no way to deceive Chen Yu. Moreover, recently, she has refused to make love with Chen Yu. If she didn''t know she loved each other, she would suspect that she was cheating Li Jinxi called Li Yunze to come, mainly to see his physical condition. Although she felt that Yunze would not necessarily agree with her madness. However, they are twins. They can always understand each other, can''t they? Li Jinxi put down his mobile phone, took the SD card to the study, turned on the computer and inserted the card reader When he saw the things inside and the information of the real hammer frame by frame, Li Jinxi''s original smile on his face gradually stiffened on his face. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze just arrived at Li Jinxi''s community and received a call from he Yining. "What''s the matter, huh?" Li Yunze walked around the steering wheel with one hand and pulled into the parking space without bias. "I''ll ask you if you can''t get through the evening," he Yining said with obvious expectation in his voice. "If you come, I''ll wait for you to have dinner." "What''s up?" Li Yunze laughed. Why would you rather curl your lips, "can''t you have dinner together if you have nothing?" "Yes!" Li Yunze''s tone was full of spoil, and the smile at the corners of his mouth was much softer. Recently, there are a lot of things in his hospital. In addition, Jane Mo has been pregnant for more than seven months. For her blood, he needs to always pay attention to the research and decomposition of the residual silence in the blood. On the contrary, he Yining doesn''t need to act. Thinking here, Li Yunze''s eyes were slightly deeper, and he felt as if something was wrong. It has been several days since the Mid Autumn Festival. Although I have close contact with Qu Weiwei, it seems that What just crossed in my mind about things I didn''t notice before?! "Li Yunze, did you listen to me?" On the phone, there was a gnashing voice of why Ning was dissatisfied. Li Yunze suddenly recalled, "I heard that. You must wait for me to have dinner in the evening. One by one, you want to learn the violin." His eyes softened again. "Let me guess again... You must think that Xiaojie decided to learn the violin because she had to learn individual musical instruments with Su Jun. it''s best to match the piano, right?" Why Ning zhe smiled, "Li Yunze, should I say you know me or your daughter?" "Both!" Li Yunze smiled, loosened his seat belt and got out of the car, "Yining, you and 11 are the two most important women in my next life!" He Yining''s heart has turned into honey like sweetness. "My daughter is the little lover of my last life," Li Yunze said in a low and charming voice when he pressed the elevator. "And you are the lover of my life..." The elevator arrived with a "Ding" sound. "You''re busy first," he Ning said with a sweet mood. "You must come to dinner in the evening. I''ll wait for you." "Yes." Li Yunze answered and waited for why Ning to hang up the phone before hanging up. Press the floor of Li Jinxi''s house, and Li Yunze calls Jin shaosi. "What?" "I feel something''s wrong," Li Yunze said. "Qu Weiwei hasn''t urgently mentioned to me about letting sister-in-law Feng come up these days..." Jin shaosi suddenly wrung his eyebrows. "Do you mean that Qu Weiwei may have found something?" "I don''t know. She didn''t behave badly in front of me." Li Yunze wrung his eyebrows and said, "but I''ve been busy these two days and didn''t care much about it. Now when I think of it, I always feel something wrong." "I have found all the names of the servants of he family in those years. As long as I can wait a week, I can find out the people who listened to sister-in-law Feng in the corner." Li Yunze looked at the rising number of the elevator and pondered slightly, "I''ll pay attention. You should also speed up your pace. I''m afraid it''s just in case." "OK." Jin shaosi answered. In due time, the elevator arrives. Li Yunze and Jin shaosi didn''t say much. They tacitly hung up the phone. Li Yunze rang the doorbell, but his mind was completely filled with the performance of Qu Weiwei around him these days. If put in the past, Li Yunze didn''t care about what to do. Qu Weiwei was just the existence of a name in his heart. Naturally, he wouldn''t think about it. But now, what happened between him and Jin shaosi cha in those years has reached a state of adhesion. If they are a little careless, they may deviate from the direction. After thinking for a while, no one opened the door, and Li Yunze rang the doorbell again. Still no one is driving. Li Yunze took out his mobile phone and called Li Jinxi. When the bell was over, no one answered. "Jin Xi?" Li Yunze shouted and then twisted his eyebrows. There was a faint sense of uneasiness between the twins. Li Yunze called Chen, "what''s your password?" "What''s the matter?" Chen Yu asked and reported the password by the way. "Jinxi asked me to come home. I called before I came, but now people came home, no one opened the door, and no one answered the mobile phone..." Li Yunze explained while pressing the password to open the door. There was an uncomfortable feeling in the air. Li Yunze frowned slightly, gently shook the door and walked in "Jin Xi?" No one answered. "Li Jinxi!" Li Yunze twisted his eyebrows and shouted again. Mobile phones and bags are on the tea table outside. People must be at home. Are you going to the bathroom?! Li Yunze walked inside. When he passed the study, he caught a glimpse of the figure inside and suddenly stopped. "Jinxi?!" Li Yunze shouted, but Li Jinxi didn''t respond at all. He frowned and went in. "What are you looking at? I''m so absorbed... I don''t ring the doorbell or call..." Li Yunze''s words didn''t finish, and his sight had fallen on the computer screen. I saw a clear picture above. Li Yunhao lost his mind, was tied with an iron chain, and looked at the front with scarlet eyes, like a trapped beast roaring The whole picture is full of ferocity under the blood! Chapter 1408 "Where did you come from?" Li Yunze''s voice was sharp and tight. At the same time, his face looked pale at Li Jinxi. Li Jinxi still looked at the picture and didn''t move, as if he had been hit by someone. "Jinxi..." Li Yunze looked at Li Jinxi and frowned suddenly. Li Jinxi still looked at the computer screen motionless. His eyes were lax and had no focus at all, as if he had been evacuated. Li Yunze pressed down the turbulent anger and grief in his heart, and gritted his teeth to press down the screen of his notebook The sound of "bang" seemed to break the string of Li Jinxi''s nerve. Tears burst out all at once, even without warning. "Yunze..." Li Jinxi''s voice was choked under the collapse. She looked at Li Yunze helplessly, as if she had lost her direction. Li Yunze came forward and hugged Li Jinxi. His eyes were scarlet and said, "it''s all over, it''s all over..." He said so, but the water mist had gradually filled his eyes. Li Yunhao, that''s the pain of the whole Li family, an untouchable pain "No past, no past..." Li Jinxi lost his confidence and arrogance in the past. At this moment, he cried like a child, "I can''t live anymore, I can''t live anymore... Sobbing..." "No, no!" Li Yunze comforted Li Jinxi, "everything is over..." "How did it pass?!" Li Jinxi suddenly pushed Li Yunze away and asked with red eyes, "the Chen family didn''t get retribution. We know that the Chen family hurt his brother, but there''s no way..." What''s the use of the most powerful hospital in the Li family? What''s the use of Li family''s money? The Li family can''t let the Chen family pay for the death of big brother without evidence Li Yunze also looked at Li Jinxi in pain. The big brother died so miserably in front of them! However, the Li family is just a family practicing medicine. Without any evidence, there is no way for the Chen family abroad. "Yunze, I can''t get through this life..." Li Jinxi hissed and cried hard. While shaking his body, something was swept to the ground. "Do you know... Chen Yu, Chen Yu... He''s from the Chen family!" Exhausted all her strength, Li Jinxi roared out her last words. After roaring, her body retreated powerlessly until she retreated to the corner of the wall "You, you..." Li Yunze twisted his eyes. "Jinxi, what are you talking about?" "Sobbing..." Li Jinxi bent down slightly and cried. There was a feeling of pain and spasm in the position of her lower abdomen. However, she couldn''t care, "Chen Yu is from the Chen family. I fell in love with the Chen family and married the Chen family..." "Chen Yu is the Chen family!" Li Yunze clenched his teeth and squeezed out a few words, and his eyes were scarlet. "Wuwu..." Li Jinxi didn''t speak any more, but kept crying there. Suddenly, Li Yunze felt what different breath was flowing in the air. Suddenly, he looked back and saw Chen Yu standing at the door of the study. Everything came by surprise! Let him not have the slightest preparation Just now, Yunze called him. He was just inexplicably upset. He didn''t trust Jinxi. He was going to go to the company, but he turned around and hurried back. As soon as he entered the door, he heard Jinxi''s collapse. At that moment, he suddenly wanted to laugh Yes, yes! Laugh at the tease of fate and the injustice of life! "Can you explain it to me?" Li Yunze''s eyes were filled with red blood under anger. "I have nothing to explain..." Chen Xuan''s voice was weak. Even if those things had nothing to do with him, it could not change the fact that he was a Chen family. Li Yunhao, the young man of heaven, was in his best years when he fell into the Chen family. He lives wantonly and in high spirits... But he can''t stop a big joke played by fate with him. Is God jealous of talent?! He doesn''t know At this moment, he just knew that he and Jinxi might never go back! Thinking of this, Chen Yu was like being held with a knife and stabbed his heart one after another. With such pain, he couldn''t die at once. "Jinxi..." "Don''t call me!" Li Jinxi stopped Chen Yu as if she were crazy. Her tears blurred, and her face was full of pain. No one can understand how painful it is without the scene of relatives committing suicide in front of themselves. Chen Yu looked at Li Jinxi and laughed at himself. His eyes were scarlet. "I know that when I helped Beichen, I knew... That day will come sooner or later." Chen Yu''s eyes are getting redder and redder. He wants to come forward and hold Jinxi, but his legs are like lead. He can''t move. "But even if I don''t help Beichen, can I really hide it all the time?" Chen Yu laughed at himself again, and his eyes were covered with water mist. "Jinxi, I want to tell you that I have nothing to do with the Chen family except my surname Chen. Even I don''t know about Li Yunhao''s incident that year. Do you believe it?" Li Jinxi cried sadly. At this moment, Li Yunze really wanted to tear Chen Yu apart. However, he knows how much Li Jinxi loves Chen Yu. At this moment, he can''t hurt Jin Xi more because of his anger. Big brother won''t want to see it Li Yunze clenched his teeth, clenched his fist and looked at Chen Yu. After taking a deep breath for several times, he left without saying anything. Chen Yu''s affairs will be calculated afterwards. As for how to solve the problem, he didn''t want to be involved in the past. But at this moment, he has another account to calculate The car is speeding down the streets of Los Angeles and heading for the mid levels villa. Li Yunze was so angry that he completely forgot what Li Jinxi had been looking for him for. "Squeak -" After a sudden brake, the car stopped at Gu Beichen villa. Under aunt Luo''s puzzled eyes, Li Yunze stepped into the villa. "Yunze..." Jian Mo was studying the design drawing with Xiangyu''s people. When he saw Li Yunze coming in angrily, he shouted. "What about Beichen?" "In the study..." Jian Mo answered subconsciously. Li Yunze didn''t say anything, so he walked to the second floor Jane Mo frowned slightly, her ear was the voice of late bloomers, but she thought about what had happened. After a while, a faint quarrel came from the study. "What''s the matter?" Xiangwan secretly stuck out his tongue and looked at Mo Xiaoya. Mo Xiaoya shook her head and looked at Jian mo. Jane Mo took two steps to the stairs with her stomach, holding the handrail of the stairs and looking at the direction of the study "Shut up!" The sharp voice came with uncontrollable anger. Li Yunze took back his eyes on Xiao Jing, looked at Gu Beichen, and looked disappointed, "OK, ok... It''s really great... Ha ha! Brother, if you are like this, what else can I say?" Chapter 1409 Jane Mo looked at the sight of the study with worry. She knew the feelings between the four young people in Los Angeles. Especially between ah Chen and Yunze, because there is only a difference of a few months, they can be said that they have been brothers since childhood. Jane Mo went upstairs uneasily, but when she got to the side of the study, she hesitated and didn''t know whether to go in or not. The original relaxed space became dignified due to the angry arrival of Li Yunze and the faint quarrel. Xiang night spit out his tongue slightly, looked at the figure of Jian Mo and asked Mo Xiaoya: "sister Xiaoya, do you want to go and let sister Mo come over? Sometimes there are problems between men, there will be no reason..." Mo Xiaoya looked back at Jian Mo, and it was too late to speak. The door of the study was suddenly opened. She saw Li Yunze come out with anger "Yunze..." Jian Mo saw Li Yunze coming downstairs and shouted. Li Yunze''s chest seemed to be stuffed with a ton of explosives. The smell of gunpowder smoke made him burst with only one lead. He was standing at the door of the study, his sight falling in front, with a feeling of forbearance. Jane Mo looked at Li Yunze with worry, and her eyebrows twisted slightly. After a while, Li Yunze slightly put away his fierce sight and looked at Jian Mo standing next to the study. Jane Mo also looked at Li Yunze, and gradually her lips. "Things between us..." Li Yunze spoke after all, but looked pale and powerless. "Don''t care..." he mocked himself and hooked the lower lip corner, "just keep your baby at ease." Then Li Yunze glanced back slightly. When Yu Guang crossed Gu Beichen, he took it back and left without stopping. Jian Mo looked at Li Yunze''s back and heard Gu Beichen''s low voice: "Xiao Jing, go and find out what happened to the Li family?" "Yes!" Xiao Jing answered and followed him away. However, before Xiao Jing brought back the news, Gu Beichen had received a call from Chen Yu. No one expected that Li Jinxi would get pregnant regardless of her life. Now, because she couldn''t bear the great grief, she had a miscarriage and threatened her life, so she was sent to the emergency room. Chen Yu leaned weakly outside the emergency room, with a burning pain on his face. After Li Yunze rushed to the hospital from Gu Beichen, he punched him without saying a word. In Huakang hospital, Li Jinxi was dignified because he didn''t come out in the emergency room. When Li Jiyuan heard that Li Jinxi was hospitalized, he hurried over As soon as he got out of the elevator, he saw Li Yunze stabbing at Chen, who leaned weakly against the wall and stared at the emergency room. The atmosphere is a little treacherous, and the air is dignified as if it can''t circulate, which makes people''s heart explode. "Dad shouted loudly......". Chen Yu said "Dad" and just spilled out of his throat, he swallowed it back. Perhaps the most disgusting thing about dad at the moment is that he, a child of the Chen family, calls him "Dad"?! With a touch of sadness, Chen Yu has lived for more than 30 years, but he doesn''t know that the simplest title will make him so desolate... And uneasy! The door of the emergency room was suddenly opened and everyone hurried around. "How''s Jinxi?" Li Yunze asked. The nurse looked at Li Yunze, "Li Shao, the situation is not optimistic. To prepare the operating room, Miss Jinxi needs an operation..." As soon as Li Yunze listened, he hurried into the emergency room regardless of others. Li Jiyuan is a person who has experienced great storms and waves. He is "calm". He didn''t ask the nurse about it, but just motioned her to arrange Chen Yu only felt that something in his body was pulled out in an instant. That feeling was like something passing away from his body. The roller of the hospital bed rubbed against the ground and made a "clattering" sound. At the moment, such a sound fell into the ears of relatives, which was as ugly as a reminder. Li Yunze followed the hospital bed and ordered the nurse on the side: "inform Dr. ge of Obstetrics and Gynecology and Dr. Wang of cardiothoracic and pulmonary medicine to enter the operating room together." He said, looked at Chen Yu, ignored him, hurried forward, and kept saying: "inform the blood bank and send 1000ccab plasma first. In addition, let the idle attending doctors in the hematology department and cardiothoracic and pulmonary Department stand by!" On the hospital bed, Li Jinxi was unconscious Her face was pale without a bit of blood. At the moment, she didn''t have the appearance of the Queen''s breath in the past. She was like a falling feather, struggling in the dust. When Li Jiyuan heard Li Yunze calling Dr. Ge, he began to tremble uncontrollably. He tried to hold his hands, but he couldn''t control his continued trembling. Chen Yu''s heart is about to stop beating... Even if he doesn''t know medicine, he knows what may have happened when Jin Xi needs blood transfusion and has no wound. "Do you know..." Li Jiyuan looked at Chen Yu in a trembling voice, "Jinxi... Can''t get pregnant?" Chen Yu had no way to think, but looked at Li Jiyuan stupidly. Li Jiyuan stared, grabbed Chen Yu''s skirt with both hands, and asked with a father''s sad roar, "do you know that Jinxi really can''t get pregnant...?!" Li Jiyuan didn''t give Chen Yu a chance to explain. He just threw him away and hurried to the floor of the operating room with a heavy step. In the hospital, people can''t resist sadness because they suddenly know the truth. It seems that the coolness of late autumn has increased a bit. Qu Weiwei''s car stopped on a side road full of yellow leaves. Because of the season and the rain the day before yesterday, the air was full of the smell of rotten leaves. The door was pulled open, and in the back seat sat a short, thin man with a military cap. Qu Weiwei looked back and said, "have you considered it clearly?" "Will you really give me money?" The man asked timidly, "I will certainly treat my mother, right?!" Qu Weiwei said, "I''ve arranged for your mother to be sent abroad for treatment, haven''t I?" As for money, as long as you agree, 100000 will be entered into your account in the early stage, and then 100000 will be given to you in the later stage "That... Really won''t have any impact on my body?" The man was also worried, "I have to take care of my mother. I can''t break down." "You don''t want to die, I don''t want to go to jail!" Qu Weiwei sneered, "don''t worry, it''s only temporary. I just need your physical examination report!" One, let he Yining... Take the initiative to leave Li Yunze''s inspection report! nothing more! Chapter 1410 He Yining looked at the time and calculated that Li Yunze should arrive in half an hour. She mixed the vegetable salad and fruit salad, put them on the table, took the red wine from the winery, opened it, put it in the sober, and went to the kitchen to see the pickled steak. Why would you rather look at your masterpiece with satisfaction and then look at the time? The smile at the corners of your mouth gradually spreads "Li Yunze certainly doesn''t know what day it is today..." Why Ning Nan said something, picked his eyebrows, went to the tea table, took the ordered cake and put it on the table. After a satisfactory look at his own arrangement, he went to the kitchen with a smile and prepared to fry the steak. The heart-shaped steak is full of love. Although it is very vulgar, why do you think this is the best way to express your mood at the moment. After frying the steak, I took the pink roses and put them on the side of the plate for decoration. Why do I prefer to look at my own works and be more satisfied. He took the steak out and looked at the time. Why would he rather think about whether to call Li Yunze According to his time and reason, it should be here. He Yining went to get his mobile phone and dialed the number. At the same time, his sight fell on the red hyacinth on the tea table, and the smile on the corners of his mouth became bigger and bigger. However, when the bell in the mobile phone rang and was automatically cut off, why did Ning frown slightly. "Can''t it be a temporary operation?!" He Yining thought and dialed again, but he still didn''t answer. Slightly tooted his mouth, why should he rather feel some loss in his heart. But when I thought that there might be a temporary emergency operation, I felt there was no way. After all, doctors are not sure about their profession many times. The so-called advance notification is more likely to be too late because of the urgency of the patient Why did Ning angrily sit on the sofa and send a text message to Li Yunze: is there a temporary operation? If yes, you have an operation and give me a reply. Don''t toss back and forth too late. But the hand just pressed above the send button suddenly stopped Why Ning sighed and thought, but still didn''t send it out. She believes that if Li Yunze is really in surgery and sees her phone, he will come back ¡­¡­ Huakang hospital. Because Li Jinxi entered the operating room, the whole medical staff on duty of Huakang were paying attention to the situation, and the atmosphere once became treacherous. "Dad..." Chen Yu said in the end, "no matter what grudges I had before, Jinxi I won''t let go." "She''s with you, and then it''s just pain!" Li Jiyuan said in a deep voice. Chen Yu glanced at Li Jiyuan. "If you don''t come with me, you won''t be in pain?" "Wait until Jinxi gets out of the operating room!" Li Jiyuan said bitterly, with a state of mind that I am in pain and you don''t feel better. Chen Yu really changed his face, "what do you mean?" Li Jiyuan ignored Chen Yu and just calmly took back his sight. Jinxi''s physical problems were brought out of her mother. Even though the Li family has an insurmountable position in medicine, she can''t make her body completely like a normal person. Pregnancy will do great harm to her and kill her at any time. What''s more, it''s still such an abnormal abortion The most painful thing for a doctor is that his hands have saved countless lives, but his family can do nothing. It''s a feeling of powerlessness to madness, not a personal feeling, no one can understand For example, at the beginning, he used so many methods to help Yunhao get rid of drugs! The outside is dignified, and the atmosphere in the operating room is even more tense. "Report the heart rate every ten seconds..." Li Yunze''s eyes focused. The medical gloves on his hands were all bloodstained. He looked at Dr. Ge, "now change the position, your main knife!" "OK..." Dr. Ge answered, motioned to Dr. Wang and began to change positions. In the neutral position of the shift, the nurse staring at the instrument suddenly exclaimed: "the patient''s heart rate stops..." "The patient is bleeding heavily..." Then another nurse exclaimed. Dr. Ge frowned and looked at Li Yunze for fear that his patient''s brother would be unstable But obviously, she was too worried. Li Yunze looked at the instrument from time to time while calmly dealing with the wound "The patient recovers his heartbeat..." the instrument nurse said in surprise. "Blood transfusion!" After Dr. Ge duly explained to the nurse on one side, he looked at Li Yunze opposite and said the steps of the operation, "ready to take out the fetal sac!" Time, spent in intense surgery When Li Yunze left the operating room and the rest was followed up by other doctors, it was more than two hours later. "Yunze, how''s Jinxi?" Seeing Li Yunze coming out, Chen Yu was still the first to rush forward, even though he was heavy. Li Yunze glanced at him and then looked at Li Jiyuan, as well as Gu Beichen, Jian Mo and others who came, "the situation is stable for the time being, and there is no big problem." After the words, Li Yunze and Li Jiyuan looked at each other. Both father and son had complex emotions at the bottom of their eyes. They all know that the relationship between Chen Yu and Li Jinxi is like a fire. Now a basin of cold water has been poured down. It can be said that both of them are ignorant. As family members, they want Jinxi to be happy, so they don''t hate the existence of Chen Yu as much as they think. However, they are also very clear that Li Yunhao''s suicide is a thorn in everyone''s heart, which has been integrated into the thorn of bone and blood. Even the operation can''t be pulled out After the operation, Li Jinxi was sent to the intensive care unit. Chen Yu never left, even though he knew that Li Jinxi would not want to see him when he woke up. But he can''t go. Even if all the Li family want to drive him away, he can''t leave. As long as he leaves this time, he and Jinxi are really finished. Looking at the unspeakable pain at the bottom of Chen Yu''s eyes, Li Yunze suddenly thought, is it because their life is too beautiful, so God is jealous and has to give them some ups and downs?! Li Yunze frowned slightly. Without saying anything, he suddenly turned around and left in a hurry After getting on the bus, Li Yunze took out his mobile phone and sure enough, there was a call from he Yining. He looked at the time. It was already more than eleven in the evening. The frown was tighter. Li Yunze started the car and galloped to Yining community Looking at he Yining''s house from downstairs, the light in the living room is on. Li Yunze felt guilty and went upstairs with his eyes down. Open the door, and the quiet and tense mood inside will be relieved in an instant. It was a serene and quiet breath. Li Yunze went in, just opened his mouth and wanted to shout, he Yining, who was lying on the table asleep, and there was a cake next to he Chapter 1411 Cake?! Li Yunze slightly puzzled and frowned. His birthday is not today, Yining''s birthday is April, and 11''s birthday has passed. So this cake is With doubts, Li Yunze walked over. His eyes fell deeply on the cake covered with finely broken white chocolate. Li Yunze picked up a large piece of dark brown brand chocolate and put it on the cake. I saw it written: I''ve known you for 6000 days. I hope we still have many 6000 days! Li Yunze''s nose was slightly sour. For more than 16 years, it was a full youth. And his silly Ning, when he didn''t fall in love with her, he counted the days he knew him every day Li Yunze looked at why he Ning was asleep and stood in place without moving for a long time. Distressed, Li Yunze took back his sight and landed on the table The heart-shaped steak, which has been cooled for a long time, is waiting in solitude, but it is full of light happiness because of the embellishment of roses. After waiting for a long time, she wanted him to celebrate with her on such a special day. However, he broke the appointment again in her life. Even if it''s not what you want. "Well," a whining voice came, and Li Yunze looked at why he Ning. Seeing that she didn''t sleep well, she pumped her mouth and moved her body Li Yunze''s eyes widened slightly and he stepped forward with an arrow... He Yining was about to slide down the table with his hand. Because of the feeling of weightlessness, why should Ning suddenly wake up? When she saw Li Yunze around, she twisted her eyebrows vaguely and said, "Li Yunze, how can my dream be the same as the real one?" Li Yunze didn''t move and still kept the action of holding he Yining. He Yining raised her hand and gently stroked Li Yunze''s cheek. When the softness and temperature in her hand came, she suddenly bounced and sat up Just when Li Yunze thought he Yining, when the brand chocolate spread sweetness in two people''s mouths, they all extravagantly hoped for each other. Next, all the beauty was added with one! "Why did you come so late tonight?" He Yining asked. Li Yunze hugged he Yining and was not sleepy at all. His sight penetrated the darkness and fell on the roof, "Yining, Jinxi is pregnant..." "Isn''t she unable to get pregnant?!" He Yining was a little surprised. "So, miscarriage!" Li Yunze''s voice was a little low and tolerant. Why Ning''s heart suddenly hurt, "tonight..." "Yes." Li Yunze answered and gently fanned his eyes. "She secretly tried to get pregnant. Originally, when you called me, she asked me to go there. It is estimated that she wants to discuss pregnancy with me." "And then?" He Yining asked softly. She felt that Li Yunze''s heart was blocked and wanted to relieve it. "However, I don''t know who gave him a message..." Li Yunze''s eyes gradually spread pain, "big brother''s news." "What?!" He Yining suddenly turned his body and looked at Li Yunze. He Yining knows about Li Yunhao. At that time, she also stopped for a long time. She just looked at Li Yunze silently, afraid that he would annoy her, and just accompanied him secretly. Li Yunze hugged he Yining''s body a little tight, and his eyes grew deeper and deeper in the dark. During the period after the eldest brother committed suicide, he knew that he Yining followed him every day and even skipped classes for several days. At that time, he knew it, but he never took care of it. Now want to come, because Yining''s company behind his back, can he have a little comfort during that time?! Habits will really become natural. For example, he Yining, whether he likes it or not, is filled with his green years "Maybe this is not the fuse that caused Jinxi''s miscarriage, but..." Li Yunze said in a dry and dumb voice, "Chen Yu, is the Chen family who hurt his eldest brother." Why Ning ciliary feather kept trembling. She stretched out her hand and hugged Li Yunze without saying anything. "Yining..." Li Yunze didn''t move and let he Yining hold her, but said gently, "for so many years, I thought I could put it down, and indeed I did. Even now I know someone who can deal with the Chen family, I didn''t take such sharp measures." Big brother''s deep look before he died, even if he didn''t say anything to him, he also clearly understood the meaning. Big brother was hurt by his own medical invention, but big brother still hopes that he can make the greatest achievements in this field and benefit more people. Such a great lover needs to inherit his last wishes rather than focus on useless things. Chen will get retribution in the world, won''t he?! But it turns out He put it down, not down. "When I knew that Chen Yu was Chen''s family, even though I knew clearly that elder brother''s affairs had nothing to do with him, I also knew that he and Jinxi were so in love..." Li Yunze''s face gradually shrouded in pain, and his voice trembled uncontrollably, "... but I may not forgive him, even if I hope Jinxi and he can be happy, but in my heart, I won''t forgive him!" Chapter 1412 Li Yunze''s mouth gradually overflowed with a shallow smile, which was cold and self mocking. Everyone can easily say, what can''t be let go? People who can say such things often rely on imagination to think that they can do the same thing. But the truth is, no! Just ask, when the person you admire most is destroyed, he was originally wanton but lived like an ant. In the end, even he couldn''t stand his appearance and chose to end his life At that moment, who can easily say that you can put it down?! no one! He Yining felt the trembling of Li Yunze''s body. She hugged him a little tighter and put her cheek on his chest without saying anything. Just like many years ago, she quietly accompanied Li Yunze. Because at this moment, she knew clearly that nothing could comfort a wounded person''s heart. "Yining..." Li Yunze spoke after a while. "Yes." Why should I rather respond gently. Li Yunze fanned his eyelashes. "If, I mean, if you encounter such a situation, how will you deal with it?" "I won''t encounter such a situation." He Yining said with some boredom. She doesn''t want to encounter such a situation, even if it''s hypothetical. Li Yunze didn''t ask any more. He could understand why he was thinking at the moment? After 6000 days and nights of following, it''s not easy to be together now. She doesn''t want to have assumptions, and he... Doesn''t want to. "Sleep!" "Well, good night!" He Yining said, and his cheek rubbed against Li Yunze again. The feeling of skin contact makes her feel real. "Good night..." Li Yunze hugged he Yining and slowly closed his eyes. ¡­¡­ The next day, the whole city of Los Angeles was shrouded in a strange atmosphere. Many media paparazzi saw Chen Yu holding Li Jinxi into Huakang hospital yesterday. As two parties who are both media people, naturally there are too many gossip to dig. However, because of the power of the emperor, Huayu and Li family, these news were suppressed. No one can report anything against these three forces. He doesn''t want to give himself a way to live. "What happened to Li Jinxi?" Fang Zihan ate in his mouth and his eyes were full of curious gossip. Why should Ning pie his mouth, "didn''t you say you have a rest these days? Why, do you still gossip about rest?" Fang Zihan choked, drooped his shoulders and continued to eat. Sometimes people are cheap. I hope to have a big holiday when I''m busy. But when I really let it go, I feel bored again No, she came to the hospital bored and asked why she would rather eat their delicious canteen food. "Still hot and happy..." "Huh?" He Yining looked puzzled. Fang Zihan indicated the meal, "tell me, it''s also a private hospital. How can it be so different?" Why Ning zhe smiled, "you can find Yanyan to eat. There are chefs over there." "I want to, but I''ll come and gossip with you." "The heat is in Huakang. It''s not easier for you to gossip there." Why would you rather curl your mouth. "Come on, the first thing for Huakang employees is not to gossip about anything in the hospital to outsiders, especially the media." Fang Zihan turned his eyes. "I''ve gone to eight. Do you mean, or, or?!" No, she feels bad. Said... Yanmiao can go away. No way, who let Huakang have so many stars, celebrities and dignitaries? Any material is big material. "You are different. Your relationship with Li Yunze, huh!" "Unfortunately, I won''t tell you." He Yining said, biting chopsticks and suddenly lost consciousness. She wondered whether to go and see Li Jinxi, although her identity was a little unclear and unclear now. "You''d better not go to eight this time, and you can''t let it out..." he Yining said. "Don''t worry, I''m just curious." Fang Zihan said in principle, "I usually just satisfy my curiosity about people and things related to my friends." "Really?" Suddenly, the voice of Yin measurement came. Fang Zihan''s body suddenly froze, and the corners of his mouth even twitched uncontrollably. Why would you rather look at the sound The man who was definitely over 190 looked at Fang Zihan coldly. "This......" why should I rather pick an eyebrow towards Fang Zihan. Fang Zihan put down his chopsticks and didn''t even look at Pei Shengyao. He said solemnly to he Yining: "Yining, I''m finished. Go, you check it for me... Really, I think I''m itchy under me!" Why Ning''s mouth twitched. Fang Zihan continued to be serious, completely ignoring Pei Shengyao''s slightly changed face and said, "I don''t lie to you... You think, if you keep poking and poking with a stick, will the meat rot? It must rot!" "..." why Ning''s mouth twitches more, not only because of Fang Zihan''s description, but also because of the information transmitted. Tut Tut, this is two people engaged in?! "Fang Zihan," Pei Shengyao sneered and said coldly, "do you want to say you have cervical erosion?!" "Poof", when Fang Zihan twitched on his face, why would he rather not smile kindly. "If so, I can take a look for you." Pei Shengyao said, his face not red and out of breath, "I was bored abroad and minor in obstetrics and gynecology." "..." Fang Zihan''s face turned red in an instant, "you''re a news student and a ghost medicine!" Of course, she knows that Pei Shengyao has not taken this course. What he calls "obstetrics and Gynecology" is completely Fang Zihan went on thinking unkindly and looked around. Fortunately, there was no one sitting near their table, or they would be lost to grandma''s house. "Pei Shengyao, I''m not finished with you!" Fang Zihan chopped his feet angrily, looked at he Yining with a smile, turned red and ran away. He Yining shook his head and made a "tut tut" sound. Looking at Pei Shengyao, who looked deep and had a mixed blood breath, he said, "for the first time, I saw someone make her have a mouth and can''t speak." "Thank you!" Pei Shengyao put out his hand calmly, "Pei Shengyao, editor in chief of Fang Zihan magazine." "I don''t like this introduction very much..." he Yining got up and said with a smile. Pei shengkey''s eyes were deep. "He plans to make Fang Zihan a private man." "Hello, he Yining, one of Zihan''s triangular girlfriends." "I''ve heard a lot!" "Go and catch up. It''s really hard to find her little body to hide." Why should Ning pick his eyebrow and look at Fang Zihan who has left the door of the restaurant. Pei Shengyao nodded slightly, turned around and wanted to catch up. "By the way," he Yining was suddenly curious. When Pei Shengyao looked at her again, she asked cunningly, "have you really repaired obstetrics and gynecology?" Chapter 1413 Pei Shengyao had a face that didn''t change in meat jokes. Under the question of why Yining, a little turtle split his face. Why Ning zhe smiled and picked his chin. Pei Shengyao said nothing and turned away from the hospital restaurant. He Yining looked at the tall figure far away and sighed: "one meter nine to one meter six, this is definitely the most cute height difference." Take back your sight, he Yining continues to eat. Without Fang Zihan''s "Twitter", her mind was uncontrollably thinking about what happened last night. Although it is assumed that she is unwilling to think about it, if the things of Li Jinxi and Chen Yu are put on her Why should Ning suddenly fight a cold war and feel that if he encounters the same thing, he must be unable to bear it. After eating, he Yining went back to the Department. On the way, he sent a text message to Li Yunze: although things happen a little more, remember to eat. After all, me and one also need you. Li Yunze looked at the message and his eyes were deep. Finally, they all turned into a faint smile: good! ¡­¡­ Chen Yu stood outside Li Jinxi''s ward day and night. When Li Jinxi woke up, he wanted to go in and see her, but he was driven out. He was afraid that Li Jinxi had damaged his already broken body because of him. He could only wait outside and didn''t leave for a moment. The nurses went in and out. Although they didn''t know what caused Li Jinxi''s abortion, they all sympathized with Chen Yu, who had been waiting outside, in addition to feeling sorry for this popular young lady. "Can''t it be because of the scandal between Yu Shao and the star that the eldest lady miscarried?" "Who knows? Alas!" "But they love each other very much. It''s impossible to have such a misunderstanding..." "The eldest lady''s body can''t bear the pregnant body. The damage is severe this time. It hurts to look at it..." In the nurse station, there was a whisper of regret, which fell intermittently in Chen Yu''s ear. Every word, like a needle, pierced into his heart. With his dry eyes closed, Chen Yu leaned against the wall and waited in silence. As the sky darkened, Li Yunze came up to the ward and saw Chen Yu looking tired but standing there. It''s one thing to say you can''t care about Chen Yu, but it''s another thing to really do it. Li Yunze took back his sight, crossed Chen Yu and went to Li Jinxi ward. "Yunze..." Chen Yu shouted hoarsely. Li Yunze held the door handle tightly and didn''t look back. He just said coldly, "don''t you think we should give each other a little space?" Chen Yu''s dry lips moved back and forth, and he couldn''t make any sound. In this way, he watched Li Yunze enter the ward. Time passes under the beat of the second hand ''Da, Da, Da''. Obviously, it is the same time, but it becomes long because of the extravagant waiting. Chen Yu didn''t know how long Li Yunze went in. Time gouged out his heart and made him almost unable to support it. The mobile phone suddenly vibrated in his pocket. Chen Yu took it out powerlessly. Seeing that it was Gu Beichen, he picked it up When Gu Beichen said that the ink palace was not like the wind before. This time, it was determined that the fifth share was given to the Chen family, he suddenly changed his face and turned around and left in a hurry. At the same time, Li Yunze just persuaded Li Jinxi to see Chen Yu and come out to shout, but he looked at the empty corridor and frowned slightly. ¡­¡­ In the twinkling of an eye, Li Jinxi has been hospitalized from abortion for several days. Chen Yu suddenly disappeared after answering Gu Beichen''s phone that day. Li Yunze called him, but no one answered. Even if he can''t forgive the Chen family, he doesn''t want Jinxi to be unhappy. Although Jinxi and Chen Yu were in a cold war, since Chen Yu disappeared that night, Jinxi has been more silent these days. Li Yunze stood in front of the office window with his hands in his pockets, wondering whether Chen''s sudden "disappearance" would have something to do with Beichen. Shi Shaoqin wanted to deal with Beichen, so he gave the Chen family such a big pie, waiting for the world of the jungle to erode his desire. The demise of the Chen family is not worth regretting. Just If Chen Yu has an accident, what should Jinxi do? Thinking, Li Yunze''s mobile phone rang on his desk. He turned and picked up his cell phone. Seeing that it was Jin shaosi''s, he frowned slightly. He didn''t pay attention to Qu Weiwei these days because of Jinxi. "Did you catch it?" "The scope has been narrowed down. Now there are two people I want to contact personally..." Jin shaosi said faintly, "I will leave for three or five days." "OK." Li Yunze answered with a little deep eyes, "if this side goes well, this play doesn''t need to continue." "Indeed." Jin shaosi spoke. "The only thing I''m afraid of now is that Qu Weiwei will jump over the wall..." Li Yunze said, already slightly wringing his eyebrows. "Whether it''s the accident of uncle he and aunt he, or the so-called thing, I''m afraid it will hurt Yining." Jin shaosi was silent before he said, "Li Yunze, have you ever thought about it? Maybe Yining is not so fragile." "That''s not about me." Li Yunze''s confident words made him feel a little worried about Mr. Jin. However, he also admitted that it was true. Yining is very strong in everything, but in Li Yunze''s affairs, she has toughness, but she is very fragile. That is an extreme contradiction, just because of too much love! "Forget it, don''t take risks." Jin shaosi said, "wait until I get in touch with people first and see what happened that year." "Yes." Li Yunze answered, paused and said, "thank you!" Jin shaosi sneered, "I didn''t do this for you." His eyes deepened. "Li Yunze, this time, it''s the only time... I won''t take advantage of it. Next time, you won''t be so lucky." "I won''t give you this chance." Li Yunze spoke. It doesn''t mean he doesn''t love enough! ¡­¡­ Qu Weiwei sat in the car and waited, her eyes falling in front, her face cold. When the sound of "Dong Dong" came, Qu Weiwei turned her head and put down the window. The man outside handed in a test report, "the result seems to be a little high..." "Don''t worry, I''ll let you start treatment after I finish my work in a few days. The expenses are all mine." Qu Weiwei took the test report and looked at it. The fundus of her eyes crossed the Yin poison. The man''s face was a little dignified. Just when he wanted to turn around and leave, he heard Qu Weiwei''s Yin swish voice, "remember, don''t say anything or decide anything... Otherwise, I don''t guarantee that your mother can return home safely." The man looked pale and wanted to say something. Before she could say anything, Qu Weiwei had started the car and left... Leaving him helpless and standing in place. Qu Weiwei looked at the man from the reversing mirror, and then her eyes fell on the test report. The doctor was "in full swing". She sneered at the corners of her mouth, wore Bluetooth and dialed Li Yunze Li Yunze, if you make me feel comfortable today, maybe I will consider why I would rather not be so painful! Chapter 1414 When Li Yunze received Qu Weiwei''s call, he was just about to leave the hospital. Seeing the call, he put down his hand to open the office door, turned back to the window and picked up "Huh?" Li Yunze''s faint voice came. As before, it was neither cold nor hot, which made people feel a little alienated, but it didn''t seem to be a long distance. "Are you busy today?" Qu Weiwei asked with a smile. "OK." Li Yunze''s eyes were deep. "I''m going to see Jinxi." "I happen to be nearby. Is it convenient to see Jinxi?" Qu Weiwei''s voice was slightly worried. "She hasn''t been in a good mood these days. She hasn''t seen anyone except her family..." Li Yunze said honestly, "after a while." "Well, good." Qu Weiwei didn''t force, "do you have time for dinner later?" "OK." Li Yunze answered. "Eat in Nanxiang building?" Qu Weiwei asked, "I used to go to school often. I passed by Luoda that day and suddenly missed it." "Then go to the one outside Luoda. You go first and I''ll arrive later." "OK." Qu Weiwei answered with a smile and hung up the phone. At the moment of taking down the Bluetooth headset, Qu Weiwei smiled coldly at the corner of her mouth, and her eyes narrowed slightly. While waiting at the intersection of the red street lamp, Qu Weiwei took the test report aside, took out the report form inside, and her eyes fell on the report results. Doctors are generally required for work related to raw stones, because they can regularly check whether the personnel''s body is exposed to the radiation of raw stones. Originally, the gemstones worn could not harm the body, but if there are hidden dangers that have not been found, it will cause a great burden on the body''s function. If the equipped doctor fails to check regularly and fails to perform his duty, he is likely to be punished by suspension of license plate and so on. Of course, if the problem is serious, it is not impossible to be permanently suspended But such cases are rare. Especially for big brand jewelers and personal brand jewelry, we will curb such things to the greatest extent Even if it happens, no one will poke it out and just try to hold it down. He Yining will not watch Li Yunze suspended. Doctor, no matter how powerful you are, as long as you hang up a medical accident, you will damage your reputation This time will not be the same as he Yining''s medical accident last time. If she really wants to do anything, she will only die. Qu Weiwei''s eyes crossed fiercely, which was a kind of anger after being deceived. "Didi..." The sound of flute came from behind the car. Qu Weiwei quickly put down the report and started the car to drive in the direction of Luoda. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles International Airport, VIP waiting hall. Jin shaosi wears headphones and opens a video conference with a notebook. "Ruomin is fully responsible for the next thing. She has the right to approve the documents for me these days..." "I see." The person in the video nodded. Jin shaosi didn''t say anything more. He cut off the video, took off his headphones and narrowed his dry eyes slightly. These days, in order to race against time, he not only has to deal with Jin''s group, but also completely put Ho''s winery on the right track The most important thing is the contact with the servants of the ho family. "Boss," Lu Fan said after seeing Jin shaosi''s meeting, "the vineyard and winery have arranged for Li Yunze to find people. According to your opinion, there are two people in the vineyard, one waiter in the winery, one temperature manager in the cellar, and one in administration." "Yes." Jin shaosi answered faintly. They will be arranged in the winery and vineyard. It''s not that he doesn''t believe in a Lang, but that a Lang has no less dedication to Qu Weiwei than he has to Yining. People come together in kind, and he always believes in this sentence. Although he wanted to possess Yining, he wanted to see her happy. A Lang''s feelings towards Qu Weiwei are probably the same. Yining''s happiness will not hinder others, but Qu Weiwei is different Jin shaosi took his mobile phone and sent a text message to Li Yunze: the personnel have been arranged. I hope your people are not useless. Li Yunze replied quickly: No. People are all from the Dragon owl side. As the night gate, who can follow the Dragon owl? Who is not a person who comes and goes in the wind and rain?! "You have something to do first." Li Jinxi''s voice was a little dry, and his whole expression was decadent without any anger. Li Yunze installed his mobile phone, looked at Li Jinxi, who was always pale, sighed and said: "Jinxi..." "Yunze, I don''t want to mention him." Li Jinxi said a little tired. Li Yunze sighed, "then you have a rest first. I''ll come and see you tomorrow morning." "Yes." Li Yunze stared at Li Jinxi and left the ward. After explaining to the nurses outside, Li Yunze left the hospital and went to Nanxiang building on the other side of Luoda On the way, Li Yunze called he Yining. "I just wanted to call you, and you called." He Yining smiled and asked, "are you in the hospital?" "Just came out. What''s the matter?" "I came to the pharmacy department to submit the medication list, and then wait for Yan Yan to have dinner and go shopping after work..." why should I rather say a little stuffy, "I still want to come early and use public welfare for personal gain." "Then I''ll turn back?" Li Yunze asked with a smile. "Forget it, you''d better be busy!" He Yining asked, "but why did you leave so early?" "Qu Weiwei made an appointment for dinner." Li Yunze said, "that''s what I''ll call you... Well, go to Nanxiang building over there in Luoda." Speaking of Luoda, he Yining thinks her circle is also very interesting. Beichen, Yunze, Jinxi, Jian Mo, Shaochen, Zixiao and her... All went to school at Luoda. "Yo, remember your youth?!" Why Ning''s voice is sour, but it''s obviously joking again. "Well, ''Remember'' youth." Li Yunze accentuated the word "Remembrance", which has a profound meaning. Why should Ning guess Li Yunze''s purpose of approaching Qu Weiwei? Naturally, she won''t be really jealous. She just loves the man who silently does something for her. "The scorching heat may come home with me tonight." He Yining said, "tomorrow she will attend a free clinic, which is near me." "Well, I know." Li Yunze opened his mouth. He Yining thought he was talking about yanmiao''s participation in the free clinic, so he said in a strange tone, "you mean to tell me not to go over there at night..." Why Ning zhe smiled, "just understand." Then he paused, "well, I''m in the hospital. Please remember your youth... Well, dark youth!" "Black youth?" Li Yunze''s eyes narrowed slightly, "Yining, can you tell me why it''s black?" Chapter 1415 "Because it''s all fake!" He Yining spoke. In the past, she didn''t want to say who in front of Li Yunze. She believes that Qu Weiwei''s ability to worsen her relationship with Li Yunze is entirely her own problem. If she hadn''t foolishly taken such a white eyed wolf as her best friend and sister, and didn''t even believe what Yan Yan saw, she almost fell out with Yan Yan because of Qu Weiwei, which only showed that she was stupid and boundless. In addition, I''ve suffered the loss of "speaking ill of others" in front of Li Yunze before. Why Ning always has a little shadow in his heart. Besides, who is Qu Weiwei? She thinks Li Yunze already knows. Otherwise, I won''t play with her! Li Yunze''s car stopped on a side of the road, and his eyes fell faintly in front, "tell me, what are fake?" "Mr. Li Yunze," he Yining said solemnly, standing at the door of the hospital, "the truth needs to be discovered by yourself. What others say may become an obstacle to the truth." "But also with me." Li Yunze smiled, "well, you go to find yanmiao, and I''ll have dinner and dig out the truth." "Yes." Why should I rather answer the voice and don''t forget to explain, "remember to protect integrity." Li Yunze smiled, "yes, my wife." "Who is your wife..." he Yining retorted, but obviously, because of the words'' wife adult '', he was happy and wanted to jump directly at the door of the hospital. Well, if you put it in the past, he Yining can do it. After hanging up the phone, he Yining went to the pharmacy first with a beautiful mood, and then went to yanmiao. "Wait a minute, I''ll be right there." Yan Miao was writing something. Seeing why he Ning came over, he looked up and continued to write quickly. When yanmiao finished writing, it was more than ten minutes later. At the right time, he Ming came over and saw he Yining. He said hello to her first. Yanmiao gave the record sheet to he Ming and said, "tomorrow we will meet directly at the free clinic." "OK." He Ming nodded and said to he Yining, "the people of the last academic meeting made an appointment to meet back. If you are free, come with yanmiao." "OK." He Yining smiled and nodded. He Ming said hello to the two men and left first. Yan Miao also changed his clothes and walked out with he Yining, "have you read the news?" "I used to look before going to bed, but now I don''t see much." Why would you rather tell the truth. I don''t see it now because Li Yunze filled her night and didn''t have time to talk about loneliness with her mobile phone. "What do you think?" Yan Miao asked. He Yining thought about what Xia yanmiao meant and said, "except Shuya and Huakang, they seem to be very hostile to me, especially Dong Jiajia." "I''ll tell you, I didn''t know until later. Dong Jiajia was one term younger than Li Yunze, and I chased him at that time!" Yan Miao raised her eyebrows. "The most popular thing is that she tore it with the bitch Qu Weiwei." Why rather stared and looked surprised. "Unfortunately, not in a few rounds, she was attacked by Qu Weiwei''s changeable character!" "You curse more and more well now..." he Yining commented. "Necessary." Yan Miao smiled and grabbed he Yining''s arm. "What are you going out to eat..." "Nanxiang building!" He Yining said it smoothly and scolded himself secretly. When Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei go to Nanxiang building, you can come to Nanxiang building. "The Rhoda family?!" "There''s only one nearby. Why go to Luoda?" Why would you rather curl your mouth. "I thought you wanted to remember the past..." Yan Miao said with a smile. As soon as he Yining heard it, he burst out laughing. Whether it''s a lover or a best friend, sometimes you can feel who is suitable for you. For example, in the past, he Yining thought he was very good with Qu Weiwei, but Qu Weiwei never told her what was on her mind, let alone joked so recklessly. For example, in the past, even if Li Yunze was with Qu Weiwei, he never took the initiative to care about her. Even if everyone knew they were together, they couldn''t catch up with the intimacy between lovers at all. "When will the custody hearing begin?" Qu Weiwei asked, "just before you came, I called my mother. She said that things over there were handled and she came up." "He Yining''s lawyer wants to negotiate privately." Li Yunze said, "I don''t want to make a fuss in front of the public one by one. If she can give me custody, it''s best to know each other in the end. I don''t want to tear my face too much." Qu Weiwei sneered, "Yunze, in fact, I''m a little curious..." "Huh?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows and looked at Qu Weiwei. "Since Yining chased you from childhood, have you never been moved?" Li Yunze slowly leaned back on the chair and looked at Qu Weiwei faintly. It was clear that she was calm, but sharp, as if to see through her, "so, I want to try..." Qu Weiwei put her hand under the table and clenched it slightly. "However, many times, people still need a good distance from each other. If they are too close, they will lose the hazy feeling, won''t they?" Li Yunze said with a pun, "I''m not what he Yining wants now, and she is still not what I want." Qu Weiwei''s hand clenched more tightly. She secretly clenched her teeth and tried to resist the impulse to question face to face. ha-ha! Li Yunze, when we were together, even if you had a little intention, maybe I wouldn''t be so angry today. You obviously hate why Ning. You are very tired of her, but now you come to tell me this because of her "Are you sure you want to be with me?" Qu Weiwei asked, "Yunze, my heart is not strong enough to be hurt twice. I can''t do it again. After being with you again, what I get is to break up." Li Yunze didn''t speak. Qu Weiwei then said, "you know, the first time I was with you, I couldn''t go back with Yining. If I were together this time, I would rob them one by one, and I would completely become her enemy." Li Yunze, as long as you think about it for me, I will choose not to force. Just this once! Qu Weiwei seemed to have an obsession in her heart. She knew that she was ridiculous, but at this moment, she thought so. She doesn''t care what cooperation she has with Meng Yi, what is despised by them, or even what her mother can''t understand. At this moment, she suddenly wanted Li Yunze to be sincere for once. Even if, just this time! "Yunze, I want you to answer carefully..." Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze with burning eyes. Chapter 1416 "You are the right person." Li Yunze spoke quietly, without too much intimacy or too much exaggeration, and even a little too realistic. The right person! Hehe Qu Weiwei suddenly wanted to laugh, "am I just the right person? Don''t you choose because it''s me?" Qu Weiwei is contradictory at the moment. She also hoped that Li Yunze would tell the truth and not deceive her because of why. However, she was afraid to hear the truth, and she also wanted to be spoiled in a dream "The same suitable candidate, I naturally prefer you." Li Yunze''s answer still doesn''t show that the mountain is watertight. Gave people sweet dates, but in fact, nothing nutritious was in it. Qu Weiwei was "moved". She smiled at the corners of her mouth. It was as bright as flowers, but there was no temperature in her heart. "I will play my role well..." Qu Weiwei said, referring to something. "Finish what I should do, do what I should do..." Li Yunze frowned and looked at Qu Weiwei faintly. "If you don''t want to, don''t force it. I''ll put it one by one and won''t take bad care of it." If she retreated, Qu Weiwei thought that if she didn''t know the hug or even kiss under the rain, she would be blinded and don''t think about anything. She would only give up because Li Yunze chose her and be happy. Unfortunately In this world, there is never an endless play or a stage that doesn''t end. "No, I don''t force it!" Qu Weiwei said quickly. Why should she be in pain? How could she feel reluctant?! ¡­¡­ The plane arrived in Singapore after flying for more than five hours. Different from the coolness of late autumn in Los Angeles, when I got off the plane, there was a heat wave on my face, which was a little uncomfortable. "Boss, are we going directly?" Lu fan asked. Mr. Jin looked at the time. It was already more than 11 pm. "Don''t worry. See you tomorrow." Jin shaosi''s steps stopped slightly, his eyes fell in front, and a cold smile was put on the corners of his mouth. "People are easier to break down only under the panic of extreme unknown." Although he gave Li Yunze three or five days, in fact, he didn''t want to delay so long. Sometimes, variables are often a moment "Yes." Lu Fan answered and left the airport with Jin shaosi. Outside, there are already cars waiting. "Boss, the hotel is ready." The man came forward and gave Lu Fan the car key. Jin shaosi didn''t say anything, but when the man opened the door, he bent and got into the car. Different from the tenderness and profundity in the face of he Yining, Jin shaosi, who controls the largest group in Brunei, is no less ruthless than Gu Beichen. People who can get up on "corpses" are often bloodthirsty. The next day, the weather in Singapore was still hot and dry. There was a room without air conditioning or even windows. Only a worn fan on the roof made a "whine" sound and turned weakly. Such rotation, not only does not have a trace of coolness, but also makes people anxious because of the irritable voice. The anxious mood will affect the mood at the moment and make people become bored and uneasy. "Sister, who is it?" A woman in her thirties frowned at another woman, then looked at the man next to her, "brother-in-law, do you know those people?" The couple looked at each other and shook their heads. "We live well here and haven''t offended anyone. How can we..." my sister said with a wrung eyebrow. "Fortunately, I''m on a business trip, so I can''t catch it together." Her words were originally unintentional, but they fell on the ears of her sister and brother-in-law, which was a little harsh. My sister got up and knocked at the door again. "Who the hell are you? It''s against the law for you to confine US privately, you know? Let us go..." The knock of "bang bang" on the door is even more boring in such a hot and dry space. My sister and brother-in-law wanted to calm my sister down, but it was obvious that my sister had begun to be manic. Jin shaosi looked at the three people in the room through the video, and his eyes narrowed slightly Very good. All three are servants of his family. The two sisters were after he left, but this man, Jin shaosi, was impressed "Wang Yuanda used to be from a winery. After coming to Singapore, he worked in a wine import company. Now he is a small minister..." Lu Fan said. "His wife and sister were servants in the main house at that time." Jin shaosi didn''t speak, but just looked at the situation in the house quietly. "Boss, do you want to bring them out now?" Lu fan asked. "No..." Jin shaosi narrowed his eyes slightly and changed his mind. "Wang Yuanda, if I remember correctly, this man is very stable." Then he motioned. Lu Fan looked at the video device. From beginning to end, Wang Yuanda didn''t show too much emotion because of the dryness and heat. "Ask again tomorrow..." Jin shaosi decided. The purpose of the temporary waiting is to solve the problem faster. If he doesn''t make a move, he will hit the target. ¡­¡­ He Yining looked at Qu Weiwei with complete indifference on his face. "I can''t see your disease, so please automatically disappear from me and don''t annoy people!" Words fall, why rather indifferent and disgusted to take back their sight and intend to cross Qu Weiwei to leave. "He Yining..." Qu Weiwei didn''t move, but the corners of her mouth sneered at the moment when he Yining''s body was staggered with her, "have a chat!" "You and I have nothing to talk about." Why rather stop, "Qu Weiwei, I don''t understand. You live your upper class life now, and I don''t hinder you. Why do you come to me from time to time to brush the sense of existence?" Qu Weiwei looked at he Yining slowly without changing her face. "You and I have nothing to talk about, but what if the content is Li Yunze?" "Oh!" Why Ning Piantou is a big sarcastic face, "he..." she shouted again, looked at Qu Weiwei and said coldly, "Qu Weiwei, Li Yunze, everything has nothing to do with me in the future!" Words fall, why would you rather lift your steps and want to leave. She didn''t know why Qu Weiwei came to her suddenly, even about Li Yunze. According to the truth, it''s "stuck" now. Shouldn''t she not appear in front of her? Even if you''re here, you have to wait for things to be a little brighter, don''t you?! Her thoughts turned in why Ning''s head for an instant. She thought that she and Li Yunze should say something "Yining..." Qu Weiwei''s voice came again, with a gloomy sneer, "is acting hard?" Chapter 1417 He Yining suddenly ''clattered'' in her heart. She wondered if there were any flaws, so what did Qu Weiwei find?! However, she knows her reaction very well. Qu Weiwei will never see anything just now He Yining kept walking and looked completely lazy to manage Qu Weiwei. Qu Weiwei was not in a hurry, but with a sneer on her lips, youyou said, "Yining, on the day you went to apply for the official licensed doctor''s qualification certificate... Is it sweet to kiss Li Yunze under the umbrella?" A word, like a thunder, exploded in he Yining''s mind. She stopped, turned to look at Qu Weiwei, suppressed her inner panic, and continued the coldness of the play. "What do you mean?" Qu Weiwei came forward with a Yin evil smile on her mouth and slowly opened her mouth: "what do I say, you don''t understand?" After a pause, "while being affectionate with Li Yunze, I have to pretend to fall out and play for me... If you''re not tired, I''ll be tired for you." Why Ning slightly clenched it, then loosened it and said coldly, "how you want to think is your business..." He Yining doesn''t care whether Qu Weiwei really sees anything or wants to blow up any information from her. Her play will continue even if it''s difficult. If Qu Weiwei really knew what happened that day, it would not happen until now. It''s been a long time Why should I rather go back and forth in my heart? I can''t figure it out. If Qu Weiwei doesn''t know, how does she know about that day? She didn''t believe that Li Yunze would reveal flaws. The man seemed casual, but he was full of some dangerous smell, which was born in a rich family. "Qu Weiwei..." why Ning suddenly sneered and looked at Qu Weiwei with sneer and disdain, "it''s not because Li Yunze has a new lover these two days, so you''re suspicious. What do you think of him and me?" Qu Weiwei didn''t speak, just smiled and looked at why she would rather play. "I really hope Li Yunze and I are acting for you, bitch..." why Ning suddenly colded his face, "you can still enjoy your angry face!" "He Yining, growing up with you, never knew you were so good at acting." Qu Weiwei said coldly, "you really shouldn''t choose to be a doctor. You should enter the entertainment industry. I think with your current acting skills, even if you are not hidden by the rules, you will be very popular." "How can I be as good as you?" He Yining was unwilling to show weakness, and still looked cold. "Those who have good acting skills and can step on their ''best friend'' to go up, if they don''t have the acting skills against the sky, I''m afraid they can''t even do it after the movie." He Yining is not the one before. She thinks Qu Weiwei is her best sister. At the moment, she was thinking that if she found Qu Weiwei''s face very early, maybe a lot of things might not happen She is not a person who shirks responsibility. She feels guilty about her father''s and mother''s car accident. However, if she guesses well, Li Yunze wants to find out the truth about the death of her father and mother from Qu Weiwei. Is there something in it?! If so, Qu Weiwei, as long as I have a little relationship with you, I will not let you go. The sudden hatred and ruthlessness made Qu Weiwei feel that he Yining was strange in front of her. But no matter how strange it is, it can''t be changed. He Yining and Li Yunze deceived her and played with her facts. Qu Weiwei raised her feet again, step by step... With invisible coldness approaching, why should she be peaceful. He Yining didn''t move, but looked at her coldly. In the corridor, at the moment, because it is the lunch break time, it is particularly quiet. Even there is no one passing by. "He Yining, leave Li Yunze..." Qu Weiwei stopped in front of he Yining. "This is my last warning to you." He Yining sneered, "Qu Weiwei, I really think you have persecution paranoia... You shouldn''t come to me, but a mental hospital." Then, why would you rather take back your sight indifferently and want to turn around and leave. However, just turned to half of her body, she was suddenly pulled by Qu Weiwei. "Qu Weiwei, are you finished?" He Yining''s patience was polished. "If you want to be embarrassed, I don''t mind calling the security guard up." "Leave Li Yunze!" Qu Weiwei said fiercely, "otherwise, I''ll destroy him!" Maowei is right. He Yining has some eyes in her heart. That is a kind of unsettling uneasiness, which comes from Qu Weiwei''s cruelty. "Then you hurry to destroy him. At the right time, he doesn''t have time to compete with me for custody one by one..." Why Ning shook his arm and wanted to get rid of Qu Weiwei''s clamp, but he didn''t. Slightly frowned, why would you rather bite your teeth and roar, "Qu Weiwei, what''s your nerve..." "Yining?!" Song Tianye comes out of the office at the right time. From a distance, he Yining and Qu Weiwei are facing each other and come forward. Don''t hold up the doctor''s eyes, or he Weining will bring her to the hospital Song Tianye knows Qu Weiwei. She and Li Yunze''s deeds in school, because he had a secret love for Yining, but he didn''t know much about them. Qu Weiwei slowly released he Yining. When he Yining was angry, she slowly leaned forward. Her voice had no tone, but it was insidious. She said in a voice that only he Yining could hear: "he Yining, I''ll wait to see you feel pain..." Then she got up, sneered at the corners of her mouth, looked deeply at why Ning, and turned away. He Yining''s heartbeat began to floss, which was a feeling of hair caused by uneasiness under an instinctive reaction. Even with this feeling, her face gradually began to become bad. "What''s going on?" Song Tianye asked, "why is Qu Weiwei with Li Yunze? It seems more abnormal?" Song Tianye doesn''t know about acting, but occasionally sees Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei together in the report, thinking they are together again now. "I don''t know..." he Yining looked at Qu Weiwei''s back and said blankly, "I''ll go to the pharmacy first." "Yes." Song Tianye answered and looked at he Yining. Seeing that her face was bad, he frowned slightly, "you don''t look very well. Are you uncomfortable?" Why rather pressed a little uneasy, "it''s all right, it''s estimated that I''m angry." Song Tianye sighed slightly. "Every time you encounter something related to Li Yunze, you just..." he didn''t continue to say, but said, "go busy. If you''re uncomfortable, go back to the office and have a rest." He Yining nodded and turned to the pharmacy. After checking Huakang''s medicine with the pharmacy, he Yining went to a small Pavilion behind the hospital and looked around. There was no one, so he dialed Li Yunze Chapter 1418 The telephone kept ringing, but no one answered. He Yining was obviously anxious because Li Yunze didn''t answer the phone. "At noon, won''t there be another operation?!" He Yining was a little breathless and dialed again, but no one answered. "I''m so annoyed that when there''s something urgent, the phone can''t be dialed..." why Ning frowned and muttered, although he knew he was a little unreasonable. He Yining is neither sitting in the pavilion nor getting up and walking. A chilly wind rushed into the body. Why would you rather fight a cold war without control? My heart was even more hairy. Qu Weiwei is so wrong today Thinking, he Yining dialed Li Yunze''s phone again, but no one answered. She could only send a text message: remember to call me back after you''re busy! He Yining looked at the "sent" message, sighed and drooped his shoulders. After touching the corner of his mouth, he pressed out his mobile phone and went to surgery. She pressed the up button of the elevator and her mobile phone rang. He hurriedly took it out. Why should Ning hang his eyes and look at the mobile phone? When he saw that the call was not Li Yunze, but the phone of the Department, it was obvious that the bottom of his eyes crossed the loss of anxiety. Then he Yining asked, "what''s the matter?" "Dr. he," the voice of the nurse came over the phone, "there is a temporary operation to be done. The surgeon is still one short. The director let you into the operating room." "OK, I''ll come up right away..." he Yining got into the elevator and hung up. Although she is basically "idling around" in surgery now, if there is an operation that can''t be arranged, she still needs a substitute occasionally. Just after he Yining changed her surgical clothes and entered the disinfection room, a bell rang from her mobile phone Li Yunze dialed again until the bell rang and no one answered the phone. Similarly, no one answered! Li Yunze frowned slightly. He had just held a temporary medical meeting. Because of the importance of the meeting, he muted his mobile phone. When I came out and saw Yining''s phone and SMS, I came back first, but no one answered "Li Shao, the operation outside God at 3 p.m." A nurse came to remind Li Yunze. "Yes." Li Yunze answered and looked at the time. It was past two thirty. Li Yunze sent a text message to he Yining: I was in a meeting just now. I want to enter the operating room at three o''clock and come out. It is estimated that it will be after seven o''clock. You go home and wait for me. I''ll come to you when I''m finished. After thinking about it, Li Yunze sent another text message: Well, you can prepare dinner, preferably heart-shaped steak! Looking at the information sent out, Li Yunze unconsciously spilled a smile from the corners of his mouth. Such a smile is relaxed and comfortable, which is a perfect sense of happiness. ¡­¡­ Chen Yu was locked in the room. He paced back and forth. Finally, he kicked at the corner of the table and scolded. The door was suddenly opened. Chen Yu looked back and saw Yongbo, the housekeeper of the Chen family, "is Grandpa going to let me out?" "The old man asked me to come and ask the young master if you would like to attend a banquet for the Chen family tomorrow." Yongbo asked calmly. "Ha ha!" Chen Yu suddenly smiled and smiled coldly, "Yongbo, did I hear you right?" "Young master, you heard me right." Yongbo never changed his face. "Mo palace gave the fifth share to the Chen family. Is this a big celebration for the Chen family?" Chen Yu tilted his head and mocked again. "What''s grandpa''s mood? Is he old and confused or something? Don''t you think why Mo Palace should give such a big pie to the Chen family and celebrate to pull hatred?" "The old man said, since the young master never cares about the internal affairs of the Chen family, why bother now?" "If I''m not Chen, do you think I''ll take care of it?" Chen Yu gritted his teeth. "If my current situation is not caused by the Chen family, do you think I will take care of it?" After being locked up for a few days, Chen Yu is going crazy. He was worried about Jinxi''s health, although he knew that with Li Yunze and them, Jinxi would be fine. Although it is clear that even if he is worried, he may not be able to see Jinxi when he goes back... But even if he is accompanied outside the ward, he is willing. But what?! He must come back to stop Grandpa. Even if he doesn''t like the Chen family any more, this is also his home. He has his family and his responsibility! Yongbo looked at Chen Yu''s Scarlet eyes, and the corners of his mouth moved back and forth. He wanted to say something, but he endured it. "Since the young master doesn''t want to go, I''ll reply to the old man." Yongbo said, turned and left the room, motioned to the man at the door to lock the door again. ¡°Shit£¡¡± Chen Yu angrily shook his arm and his face was full of haze. Chen Yu closed her eyes and tried to calm down so that she wouldn''t be too manic and lose her mind. Take out your cell phone and there is a signal. However, there is only a signal. You can''t dial out any phone you want to dial. Naturally, you can''t get the phone you want to answer. Chen Yu went to the door and patted the door. A voice came from outside: "young master, what can I do for you?" "I want to see big brother." Chen Xuan gritted his teeth. There was a silence outside before a voice came: "brother Zhao left a message. If you don''t plan to go, he won''t come to see you..." paused, "has the young master decided to go?" "..." Chen Xuan bit his teeth, turned his head and spit again. He didn''t say anything. ¡­¡­ Why is it better to have the operation? It''s more than four o''clock. It''s five o''clock fast. She came out and took her mobile phone first. Sure enough, there were Li Yunze''s phone and text messages. She opened it and looked at it. She was a little discouraged. "How can I always miss..." why did Ning wring her eyebrows and murmured. Because I''ve been missing it all the time, why should I be more restless? That kind of uneasy mood seems to have taken root and sprouted and began to spread in the blood. "What''s the matter, doctor he?" The instrument nurse just came out and saw he Yining looking at the mobile phone and asked with concern. He Yining took back his sight, hung his hand, shook his head with a smile, "it''s all right." While disinfecting and washing hands, the instrument nurse said some things about the operation, "Dr. he''s a great operation. Why do you choose to go to obstetrics and gynecology?" "Interest..." "Oh!" Why rather wear a white coat, "I''ll be busy first." "Yes." The instrument nurse looked back at he Yining who went out and sighed, "that kind of surgical ability is really a bit wasted in going to gynecology and obstetrics." He Yining returned to the office with something on his mind. He was not sweet because of the "heart-shaped Steak" requested by Li Yunze, but his chest seemed to be filled with something, which was ethereal and uncomfortable. "Dr. he..." When he Yining passed the nurse station, the nurse stopped her. "What?" "The foreign Xu Zhao called when you had the operation and said that the list had been emailed to your mailbox." "Well, ok... Thank you!" Why did Ning enter the office, open the mailbox and plan to check the drug list sent by Xu Zhao, and then get ready to get off work and go back to wait for Li Yunze. It''s just that the mailbox is open and there are two emails. One is Xu Zhao''s, one is Qu Weiwei''s. Chapter 1419 He Yining opened the email for a second. He Yining opened it for the last second. Because she is involved in the docking of Huakang drugs, Xu Zhao will check with her every time. What''s wrong? Two people can go to the pharmaceutical factory to communicate He Yining compared the list given to Huakang yesterday. The quantity and drugs were appropriate. He replied to Xu Zhao by email and copied it to Ma Guangming. Just wanted to quit the mailbox, the line of sight involuntarily fell on Qu Weiwei''s email. Why Ning still opened it. "He Yining, for the sake of your good performance, I''ll give you a gift." "Look at the attachment!" He Yining frowned and saw that there was an attachment in the email. He Yining stared at the attachment for a long time, so long that his eyes looked at some flowers and didn''t open it. The hand holding the mouse is hesitating. Why should I lift my finger on the mouse, put it down gently, and lift it again After going back and forth several times, I took a deep breath, pressed the mouse and previewed the attachment. The attachment is a scanned copy of the medical report identification, which is no stranger to the doctor he Yining. While wondering who this person called "Qifang" is and what relationship his medical appraisal report has with her, he Yining can''t guess what Qu Weiwei is going to do. The finger controls the mouse to slide down, and the scanned copy of another contract appears in front of me When seeing Li Yunze''s name, he Yining suddenly widened his eyes. She looked at Li Yunze''s signature as if she had been given something. She didn''t move or even blink. At that moment, why should my mind be empty. Someone pushed the door of the office and came in. Seeing he Yining, he said hello. Why Ning subconsciously responded to the person, what to say, or who to respond to, she doesn''t know. "Dr. he, you don''t look well. Are you too tired after the operation?" "I''m fine." He Yining instinctively answered. The man frowned slightly and looked at the direction of the computer. He thought he Yining was looking at something and thinking about things, so he didn''t say anything. He Yining doesn''t know how he turned off his computer, how he left Shuya after work, or even how he got on the subway. By the time we found that we had taken the wrong route, it was getting dark. She looked blankly at the route map, got off the subway, got out of the subway station, took a taxi, reported her home address, and lay back on her seat He Yining''s mind was full of the appraisal report and the contract signed by Li Yunze. The whole person seemed to be evacuated and could not afford a soul. The driver stopped at the door of the community. Seeing that he Yining still looked out of the window and didn''t respond, he slightly frowned and turned back to remind him, "Miss, here we are." Why Ning suddenly woke up and looked at the door of the community. After "Oh", he hurriedly paid the fare and got off the car. The night is low and the lights are on. Late autumn nights always come earlier than summer. He Yining returned home, the man arrived at the door, motionless, and his eyes fell in front. She didn''t know what she was thinking, or she didn''t think about anything, but the whole person was a little numb The sudden ringing of the mobile phone broke the silence. Why Ning suddenly surprised you. When the reaction came that the mobile phone rang, he hurried out of his bag. Qu Weiwei''s! At this moment, he Yining has the impulse to tear Qu Weiwei, if Qu Weiwei is in front of her. Close your eyes and breathe deeply. When he Yining opened his eyes again, he picked up the phone and put it in his ear, "Qu Weiwei, what do you want?" "Why, no more acting?" Qu Weiwei said with a sneer, "I really don''t cry when I don''t see the coffin..." He Yining''s breath was slightly heavier. She clenched her teeth tightly and tried to suppress the crazy anger in her heart. "Leave Li Yunze," Qu Weiwei said slowly, "otherwise, I will destroy him." He Yining didn''t speak, but his breath became more and more unstable. "Of course, you can also choose to tell Li Yunze..." Qu Weiwei smiled. "You can try. Is Li Yunze really capable of covering the sky with one hand in the medical field, or can I ruin his reputation." "Qu Weiwei," why rather bite your teeth and squeeze out the gap between your teeth word by word, "you''ll die!" "Let''s see who dies first!" Qu Weiwei said coldly, "he Yining, I''ll give you time to consider... Three days. If I can''t get your answer, then we''ll see." He Yining''s breath was so heavy that she was about to burst her chest. Before she opened her mouth, she listened to Qu Weiwei continue: "of course, you can play... But in this world, there is no play that will never end!" The words fall, listen to Qu Weiwei cold hum, directly hung up the phone. The hanging sound of "Dudu Dudu" echoed in his ears and controlled he Yining''s brain nerve. Even after it stopped, she seemed to be able to hear that magic sound. Why rather closed his eyes, his eyelids were trembling, and his nose was even more sour. She doesn''t understand, let alone Why, why is it so difficult for her to be with Li Yunze?! Tears, after burning the nerves, overflow the closed eyes. He Yining''s body began to twitch because of grief, and the breath in his nose seemed to be blocked. If you don''t know what to do with that kind of angina, why don''t you let it go. "Why is it so difficult for me to be with Li Yunze?" The voice of low roar came, why would you rather suddenly open your eyes. With red eyes, she looked at the dark room because of the dim sky, and her voice was choked. "I just want to be with him, that''s all. I''m not greedy... Why, why is it so difficult to have such a wish!" The air is filled with helplessness and despair under sadness. It''s so sad and I''m powerless He Yining dragged his heavy body to the sofa and sat down. His eyes fell in front without focus, allowing tears to flow out of his eyes, scalding his skin and salting the corners of his mouth. Time, bit by bit. He Yining forgot that Li Yunze said he would come, but sat there alone, just like a wooden doll. When Li Yunze came over, he looked downstairs. There was no light, and came up in doubt. He opened the door and it was dark inside. "Yining?" Li Yunze frowned slightly, thinking that he wouldn''t have missed his message and didn''t come back?! The light was turned on with a light bang. The sudden light pricked he Yining''s eyes. She instinctively whispered in pain and closed her eyes. "Yining?!" Li Yunze saw he Yining on the sofa, saw the wet tears on her face, suddenly strode forward with a tight frown, and sat down on one side, "Yining, what''s the matter, huh?!" Chapter 1420 Why Ning slowly opened his eyes, turned his head and looked at Li Yunze numbly. Her vision still has no focus, showing the weakness under the daze, and more importantly, she has lost her hesitation under the style of the past. Li Yunze''s eyebrows wrinkled more tightly. He took why Ning into his arms and stroked her back with his big palm, trying to ease her tense mood After a while, Li Yunze asked softly, "what''s the matter, huh? Do you want to tell me?" He Yining didn''t move or speak, and let Li Yunze hold her. "It doesn''t matter if you don''t want to say it now, wait until you want to say..." Li Yunze held he Yining''s body a little tighter. I don''t know why, he has a feeling of emptiness. It''s like something needs to be taken away from his body. This feeling makes Li Yunze dislike, even hate. In the space, we can hear each other''s heartbeat quietly. Although he Yining stopped crying, the breath she sent out at the moment made Li Yunze feel worse than crying. Even so, Li Yunze didn''t say anything, just quietly holding he Yining, trying to let her find a sense of security from his arms. Night, more and more heavy, heavy some people feel depressed. I don''t know how long it took until both of them were numb when they held the same position. "Yining, I''ll take you out to eat, huh?" Li Yunze said softly, "or shall I make it for you?" "I have no appetite..." he Yining said in Li Yunze''s arms. Li Yunze frowned slightly and said, "but I''m a little hungry. Do you want to eat with me?" He Yining knew that Li Yunze wanted to distract her attention. She''s not hungry. She doesn''t even have an appetite. However, Li Yunze didn''t eat, even if he might worry that she didn''t have an appetite "OK." He Yining answered softly. "Go clean up and I''ll cook..." Li Yunze let go of he Yining and stared at her deeply. "I have no appetite. How about steaming an egg for you?" He Yining replied to Li Yunze''s words without answering. Li Yunze''s big palm gently crossed he Yining''s cheek, and there was a soft smile on the corner of his mouth, "you know, the steamed egg I made is very delicious... Well, think about the smoothness of the steamed egg I made, do you suddenly have a little appetite?" He Yining didn''t have it yet, but he couldn''t bear to brush Li Yunze''s kindness, so he nodded. Li Yunze smiled and kissed on why Ning''s lips. "Good, go clean up and I''ll cook." He Yining nodded again, then got up and walked to the bathroom. When she came to the entrance of the small corridor, she looked back at Li Yunze who went to the kitchen. Her heart was full of guilt and pain. He came over after the operation, but also comforted her and cooked for her Is she really not suitable for Li Yunze? From small to large, she seemed to have nothing good but trouble for him. "Li Yunze..." he Yining shouted hoarsely. Li Yunze just stopped at the door of the kitchen and looked back at he Yining. "What''s the matter?" "You''re so tired, you have to comfort me and cook for me. I feel I''m of no use to you..." he Yining said what he thought in his heart. Li Yunze looked at he Yining with burning eyes. After a few seconds, he smiled and said, "how can my Yining be useless?" He Yining gently fanned his lower eyelashes, and his fundus was at a loss. "My Yining spent a youth, let me know how to love, and let me understand the taste of love. It turns out that it makes people feel ignorant and greedy..." Li Yunze''s voice is filled with the lightness of magnetism, soothing he Yining''s mood. "The most important thing is that my Yining not only made me understand love with a youth, but also brought me little lovers from previous lives and made my life complete. How can it be useless?" Li Yunze smiled at the corners of his mouth, "physical fatigue is temporary, but you make my heart relaxed. You can''t change how much rest you have. Understand, silly girl!" He Yining''s nose was sour again, and her eyes were red again. She bit her lips, but the corners of her mouth looked at Li Yunze with a smile. She never thought that Li Yunze would say these words to her in her life "Li Yunze, you make me even more reluctant to leave you." He Yining said and flew to Li Yunze''s arms. Li Yunze caught he Yining. If he hadn''t been on guard, he could have been hit by he Yining''s impact on the door frame. "Why did you leave me?" Li Yunze hugged he Yining and asked, "doesn''t my silly Ning love me?" "There''s No..." why do you say it rather stuffy? I don''t know whether Qu Weiwei wants to say it or not. Li Yunze felt the tangle of he Yining and didn''t force her. He just said, "how can you cook if you stick to me like this?" "..." why don''t you speak. Li Yunze sighed and took his cell phone out of his pocket. "Forget it, order takeout tonight!" He said that his fingers had quickly pressed the virtual keyboard on the mobile phone screen. "How about a hot pot with coke? But if it''s a little cold, don''t drink ice!" Li Yunze said that he had made a "order" ¡­¡­ Xiao Qiang make complaints about Li Yunze''s short message, and he saw him send hot pot and dishes to the room. "Last time I bought Malatang and put so many chili peppers on it, you''ll be surprised if I don''t fix it today!" Xiao Qiang said that he had dragged two younger brothers from the bar and went to a famous hotpot chain nearby. Side dishes, base materials, coke, card oven The most important thing is that the base material must be the hottest one! "I won''t kill you this time. My name is not Xiao Qiang..." Xiao Qiang looked at the hot pot bottom marked with "special spicy", and a cunning pride crossed his eyes. However, Xiao Qiang didn''t expect that Li Yunze didn''t specify what spicy food he wanted, but knew that he would retaliate Li Yunze''s purpose is naturally to be spicy, because that''s why he prefers it. In particular, he Yining likes to eat spicy hot pot to relieve the happy and unhappy emotions in his body when he is in a good and bad mood. ¡­¡­ "It is estimated that the takeout will arrive in more than half an hour..." Li Yunze said, "silly Ning, do you want to tidy up your appearance first, or do you want to tell me what you want to say and don''t want to say when you are in a mood?" Why would you rather let go of Li Yunze? Your sight is uncertain, and you are right on Li Yunze''s. Li Yunze gently looked at her and didn''t force her all the time, just waiting Chapter 1421 Why Ning drooped his eyes, secretly bit his teeth and kept breathing deeply. Looking at her tangled appearance, Li Yunze''s eyes gradually deepened. Although he was not sure about some things, he seemed to guess what?! "Li Yunze..." why is Ning still drooping his eyes. "Huh?" Li Yunze answered softly. He Yining raised her eyes. "Qu Weiwei seems to know we''re acting." Li Yunze was not surprised. Just now, he had guessed. "You called me in the afternoon to say this!" Li Yunze is asking, but it has been determined. He Yining nodded. "She came to me at noon and told me about my acting with you..." paused. "She seems to know that that day, the day you sent me red hyacinth, we kissed on the road." Obviously, Yunze frowned slightly because of the accident. "I don''t know how she knows," he Yining said in a dry voice after crying. "I was still holding on, but..." Li Yunze looked at he Yining quietly, waiting for her to continue. He knew that it was not Qu Weiwei who found out that they were acting that really made him feel unstable. If this is the case, why should there be no need to hide it? Even, there should not be such sadness. Why should Ning bite her lower lip and look at Li Yunze''s sight? Because of him, her heart seems to be less hesitant and uneasy, "I''ll show you something..." She let go of Li Yunze, went to get her mobile phone, opened the mailbox, and clicked the email sent by Qu Weiwei to show Li Yunze. Li Yunze glanced coldly at those two words and opened the attachment. "That''s it?" Li Yunze looked at he Yining, "he Yining, where''s your brain?!" Why would you rather frown suddenly. "Does Qu Weiwei threaten you to leave with this? What do you say? If you don''t leave, you''ll destroy me?!" Li Yunze asked, seeing why he was rather guilty, he sighed helplessly, "fortunately, you are also greedy and unwilling to leave me." If it weren''t for why she would rather be too reluctant to leave Li Yunze, perhaps she would face today''s affairs alone. "Li Yunze, this matter......" why should Ning zhe lip down, "otherwise, I''ll leave you first and wait until this matter is handled..." "Do you think Qu Weiwei will believe the same acting twice?" Li Yunze said, "even if you really leave this time, she will think you are acting." Why rather frown. "In fact, the result is that whether you can''t leave, true or false, Qu Weiwei won''t believe us anymore." Li Yunze said that he had forwarded the email to his mailbox. "Li Yunze, is your focus wrong?!" He Yining frowned more tightly. "Now it''s not whether she believes it or not, but that you may be suspended." Li Yunze sneered, "in China, no one can stop me." He Yining looked at Li Yunze''s words, slightly opened his sight and looked suspicious. She is also a doctor. She knows too well that such medical malpractice will be directly suppressed by public opinion. This has nothing to do with whether the medical skill is superb or not. It completely violates people''s bottom line. I think doctors ignore people''s lives. The most important thing is that the lives of people at the bottom will cause public anger. "Don''t say I won''t have such a principled medical accident," Li Yunze said calmly. "Even if it does happen, Qu Weiwei will be directly detained no matter which department she passes the information to." What he can save with both hands and the drugs he can develop are not one person. It may be an urban population or even a wider range Many times, the pros and cons are not visible to outsiders. People, only when they reach the peak in a certain field, will not be envied and will only be looked up to. Unfortunately, he is a member of the top in the medical field. From pharmacy to surgery, who competes with him in China?! Why should Ning quietly look at Li Yunze? She has never seen him like this. He was not indifferent to her when she was a child, nor was he in the operating room, who was confident enough to see everything At the moment, Li Yunze is full of arrogance under hegemony. "Did I just worry in vain?" He Yining said angrily, "even, I''m still thinking, do you want to leave you!" Li Yunze took why Ning into his arms. "Fool, if you encounter such a thing in the future, you have to tell me first, okay?" He sighed, "Yining, I hope we can face something together. After all, we are together." "But have you discussed anything with me?" He Yining charged immediately. Li Yunze was stunned and sighed in his heart, "men sometimes have to bear more than women..." "Anyway, everything is yours!" Why should Ning, after making a charge, ask anxiously, "Li Yunze, does this really have no impact on you?" Li Yunze rubbed he Yining''s head, and the action was full of doting. "Don''t worry, she can''t control me because of this." "Is that right? We don''t have to act..." "Yes!" Li Yunze nodded. Originally, he didn''t want to continue, but now it''s just right. Now, as long as Jin shaosi gets the information he wants from the former servant of he family and completely solves it, he, Yining and one by one can live together well. "Well, go and wash the tears on your face..." Li Yunze thought that Xiao Qiang''s takeout should be coming soon. "Are you going to sit opposite me like this later? You can''t see it yourself. I''m afraid I won''t have an appetite later." Li Yunze joked, why Ning snorted, let him go and went to the bathroom angrily. Just two minutes after he Yining entered the bathroom, the doorbell rang. Li Yunze turned to open the door and saw Xiao Qiang come in with two younger brothers, holding fresh-keeping boxes and stoves in his hands "Put it over there." After Li Yunze motioned to his younger brother, he took out his mobile phone and transferred an email to Xiao Qiang, "check the man Qi Fang. In addition, look at the source of the report." Xiao Qiang opened the email and looked at the attachment. "Tut Tut, what''s going on?!" Paused, "but shouldn''t you check the medical report faster?" "When I come forward, others will know faster!" Li Yunze said angrily. Xiao Qiang grinned, "tell me, we don''t have to fight and kill now. How can we become your love Pathfinder..." Brother Xiao, Chen Shao... Now add Li Shao. "Tut Tut, thanks to the fact that Nanshao is in the army, otherwise we can''t allocate enough manpower..." Xiao Qiang shrugged and heard something coming from the bathroom, indicating that the two younger brothers were leaving. At the same time, he raised his eyebrows with Li Yunze. Taking advantage of the situation, he raised his mobile phone and told Li Yunze that he would check the matter of Qi Fang as soon as possible Chapter 1422 "Can you tell me what this is?" Meng Yi looks at Qu Weiwei with a report in his hand. His eyes are mixed with coldness because of anger. "Can''t you see the appraisal report?" Qu Weiwei sneered. With a bang, Meng Yi threw the appraisal report on the table, "Qu Weiwei, are you crazy?!" "Yes, I''m just crazy!" Qu Weiwei''s beautiful face became ferocious, "I was crazy and thought Li Yunze had some feelings for me. Even if there was no love, at least... I was the woman he wanted to get along with!" Qu Weiwei sneered, "but what?! it''s all fake, everything is fake!" Meng Yi looked at Qu Weiwei and said coldly, "Qu Weiwei, don''t tell me you''re in love with Li Yunze..." He sniffed coldly, "don''t forget that you just want what you want because of he Yining, because everything in he family has caused you a humble heart!" In a word, it seemed to wake Qu Weiwei up. However, unlike in the past, this time did not wake her up, but made her more sharp. She sneered mockingly and looked at Meng Yi angrily. "Yes, I am humble..." she gnashed her teeth and squeezed words out of her teeth word by word, "so I want those who make me humble to die one by one!" Meng Yi narrowed his eyes slightly and approached Qu Weiwei step by step, "I don''t care what you do, Qu Weiwei, don''t break my business..." Qu Weiwei instinctively retreated because of Meng Yi''s approach. "I''ve invested in you for so many years, and even made you a bright and beautiful you step by step..." Meng Yi said coldly, "do you want to break my business before I get what I want?" "They are acting. Even if I don''t do anything, do you think I can get what you want from Li Yunze?" Qu Weiwei roared with hatred. "Oh", Qu Weiwei swings her arm because she is crazy and is suddenly caught by Meng Yi. Because Meng Yi has no control, Qu Weiwei''s painful face is wrinkled together "There''s no chance this time. We can pretend to be the weak..." Meng Yi bit his teeth from beginning to end because he was too angry. "Only the weak can make people feel pity. Shouldn''t you know best?" Once, if not why Ning is too "strong", how can Qu Weiwei discredit why Ning again and again in Li Yunze? If he Yining didn''t lose everything and lose the edge of the eldest lady, and Qu Weiwei became superior, how could Li Yunze change his attitude?! These were the truths Qu Weiwei understood most, but now she lost her mind because of anger. Meng Yi gets rid of Qu Weiwei and looks at her coldly. "Can you do it? I''ve already done it..." Qu Weiwei said, "don''t worry, why wouldn''t I tell Li Yunze about it?" "Are you so sure?" Meng Yi hissed coldly. Qu Weiwei said with a venomous look, "why do you rather love Li Yunze too much? She will only bear it by herself and leave Li Yunze..." she sneered, "people all over the world will harm Li Yunze. Why not only one!" "Because," said Qu Weiwei, glaring and gnashing her teeth, "she would rather die by herself than let Li Yunze get hurt!" Love... Sometimes, it''s so funny! "No matter whether she will say it or not," Meng Yi said coldly, "now, if you want to get Li Yunze''s trust, you must think long-term." Qu Weiwei looked at Meng Yi who turned to the sofa. "Meng Yi, what do you want from Li Yunze?" "As I said, you don''t need to know." Meng Yi looks back at Qu Weiwei, with a warning at the bottom of his eyes, "you know now, it will only be bad for you." Qu Weiwei clenched her hand. "What''s next?" "Now that you have threatened he Yining, let''s wait and see how the next two people react." Meng Yi sat down on the sofa, picked up the apple and fruit knife and began to cut, "nothing more than two cases." "One kind, why would you rather leave Li Yunze? Li Yunze will really resent her repetition." Qu Weiwei sat down, "another..." "Li Yunze is likely to know that he Yining''s mistake is your threat." Meng Yi answered. Qu Weiwei screwed off her eyebrows, and her eyes were full of anger, "if it''s the latter, it means..." She didn''t go on, but her hands tightened. "Explain why Li Yunze would rather not just try, but..." Meng Yi said what she resisted to say for Qu Weiwei, "... Fell in love!" Qu Weiwei suddenly closed her eyes. She gasped and tried to calm herself down. Meng Yi has cut an apple. When Qu Weiwei opens her eyes, she hands it to her. He took another apple and began to peel, "Li Yunze..." he sneered, "it''s much smarter than Li Yunhao." Li Yunhao is very smart, but all his IQ is dedicated to medicine. He lives as if he doesn''t eat human fireworks. Li Yunze, perhaps because of his circle of friends, is obviously smarter than Li Yunhao in some aspects. "Meng Yi, why do you like cutting apples so much?" Qu Weiwei asked, looking at the beautiful apple in her hand. Meng Yi looked at her and his men kept moving, "because... Pleasure in peace!" A few simple words fell, and Qu Weiwei only felt a chill on the soles of her feet. It was a bloodthirsty voice, as if it came out of hell In fact, she doesn''t know Meng Yi. For example, what does he want from Li Yunze? For example, why do you choose to help her get She couldn''t figure out many things and didn''t want to think about them. Because people use each other, and she can get what she wants... Just fine! ¡­¡­ Why do you prefer to eat hot pot and call it ''so cool''! "Alas, if only coke were ice..." he Yining sighed while eating. Li Yunze rinsed a piece of mutton and put it in the why Ning bowl. "Seriously, you''re ugly now!" "..." why did Ning stop when he was about to put vegetables into his mouth, and looked at Li Yunze with dissatisfaction. Li Yunze looked at he Yining and smiled. "Your eyes are red... Well, it''s the same as this soup bottom," he motioned under his chin, "I think you can use your eyes to rinse vegetables!" "..." why did Ning twitch at the corners of his mouth, "laugh if you want. Anyway, it doesn''t matter that I was laughed up by you since I was a child." Why would you rather leave your mouth and continue to eat. What can be happier than leaving the person you love, but you think more about yourself?! Why rather eat and smile at the corners of her mouth? It''s obviously spicy, but she has a sweet taste. Li Yunze quietly looked at why he would rather eat. The corners of his mouth also smiled with satisfaction, but there were thoughts in the depths of his eyes. At the right time, Li Yunze''s mobile phone vibrated on the table. He looked down at the call, frowned slightly, picked up his cell phone and got up, "I''ll answer the phone..." Words fall, others have gone to the direction of the balcony. He Yining twisted his eyebrows and looked at Li Yunze''s back. I don''t know why. I feel that this phone... Is a little weird! Chapter 1423 After Li Yunze got to the balcony, he picked up the phone and put it in his ear, "how?" Jin shaosi listened to Li Yunze''s voice and frowned slightly, "Yining is with you?!" If you don''t answer the rhetorical question, you are sure. "Yes." Li Yunze didn''t hide it, but asked, "what''s the situation over there?" Jin shaosi strolled in the hotel garden and dressed up casually, but it was difficult to hide his breath. "There is no accident. Tomorrow will bear fruit." "I also had some accidents here..." Li Yunze didn''t say clearly, "you can''t delay any more." "Qu Weiwei knows?" Asked Jin shaosi. "Yes." Li Yunze answered and looked back at he Yining. Just why Ning also looked over, Li Yunze smiled at her and motioned her to eat first. He Yining nodded, took back his sight and went fishing for vegetables, and his thoughts turned with him. Who''s calling so late? Li Yunze needs to avoid her?! Thinking about it, why Ning turned his head and looked at Li Yunze''s back, then took back his sight and continued to eat. "It seems that your accident is out of control..." Jin shaosi felt the solemnity in Li Yunze''s tone. "Things are not as simple as they think," Li Yunze said, looking at the hazy night outside. "I can''t figure out some problems. I''m afraid I''ll understand them when you get the results." "Yes." Jin shaosi answered, "there''s nothing going on at the winery." "I hope he''s smart." Li Yunze''s eyes sank slightly. If Tan Zhonglang is smart, he is the best. If Li Yunze glanced at the bottom of his eyes and suddenly understood why the blood was colder after Beichen''s hand was stained with black. People want to protect themselves and the people they want to protect. Often, they can only do it if they are darker than the enemy. It''s not about ability, it''s just about the degree of cruelty. Jin shaosi frowned slightly when he felt the anger filled Li Yunze''s body. He didn''t know what happened in Los Angeles?! "I have the result tomorrow. Let''s meet again." "OK." Li Yunze answered and hung up. The eyes that fell in the distance became deeper and deeper, and he gradually recovered his sight until the spotlight was in the deepest place. Turning around, Li Yunze walked to the table as if nothing had happened. Seeing the dishes swept on the table, he sat down with a smile, "I''m not afraid of being fat if I eat so much at night?" "Anyway, there are you..." why would you rather curl your mouth and continue to eat, "besides, you can only talk on the phone for a few minutes, as if I had cleaned up." Li Yunze looked at he Yining with soft eyes. His eyes were spoiled and said, "wait for a walk downstairs, first eliminate food, and then come back to exercise. It is estimated that the heat consumption is almost the same." As soon as he Yining heard this, the corners of his mouth twitched, and his face turned red "Look, my face turns red when I eat too much pepper." Li Yunze looked at why he would rather blush and joked. As soon as he Yining heard this, he bared his teeth, picked up the cherry tomatoes on one side and stuffed one into Li Yunze''s mouth. However, when the red cherry tomato blocked Li Yunze''s mouth and his eyes were ambiguous, why did Ning think of some indescribable pictures uncontrollably in his mind. Suddenly... His face became more red. ¡­¡­ In the small apartment, hot pot is in full swing. After arriving at Devil "s kiss, Xiao Qiang checked the system of the hospital attached to the email Li Yunze sent him. From registration to testing, all processes are in line with the regulations. Moreover, there is no trace of fraud. "Tut Tut, there are really such coincidence things in the world..." Xiao Qiang turned his chair and looked at Xiao Yu and Xiao Heng who were playing chess. "Hey, do you think there are many coincidence things?" "Coincidence is man-made." Xiao Yu opened his mouth coldly and ate a chess piece from Xiao Heng in time. Xiao Heng frowned. After taking the next step, he looked at Xiao Qiang, "coincidence, it''s all made..." "So there are not so many coincidences in this world." Xiao Qiang turned the seat and turned back. He said with words in his mouth, "sister Nan doesn''t know when to come back. In fact, it''s not easy for sister nan to do Qu Weiwei directly!" Xiao Yu sighed and looked back at Xiao Qiang. "This is not the world of night gate. Do you think it''s so simple to die a person casually? Stupid!" "Moreover, this is not a foreign country..." Xiao Heng also looked at Xiao Qiang with disgust. "Qu Weiwei is not a person in the dark world. People like her look annoying, but if she suddenly dies, it''s still a trouble." Xiao Qiang looked back at the two people and ignored their dislike. His fingers flew away from the upper reaches of the keyboard. After a while, he released all the information from small to large "Nothing surprising, just a dying mother." Xiao Qiang muttered to himself, "Qi Fang is a famous filial son... This plot is really dog blood." Xiao Yu and Xiao Heng looked at each other, took out earplugs from their pockets and put them on their ears to prevent Xiao Qiang''s nagging mother-in-law''s voice from affecting their thoughts of playing chess ¡­¡­ Qi Fang took the ointment and wiped the rash on his body. He looked at himself in the mirror. He was thin enough to see the scattered red spots on his ribs, which were more than yesterday. It''s itchy, but he doesn''t dare scratch it. "Hissing" came, and Qi Fang''s uncomfortable eyebrows tightened up. He applied another layer of ointment, and only when he was soaked with cold did he slightly alleviate the uncomfortable feeling. Qi Fang sighed heavily, went out of the bathroom and called Qi''s mother. "I''m here at noon," Qi''s mother''s voice was dull under the torture of illness. "Xiao Fang, don''t worry about mom. The people here are very good to mom... Even if they speak, mom can''t understand." "Mom, just treat yourself well..." Qi Fang endured another wave of itching. "Because I don''t have so much money, I can''t go with you. You must take good care of yourself. I''ll wait for you to come back." "Good!" Qi''s mother said with red eyes, "mother will try her best to fight the disease." "Yes." Qi Fang''s eyes turned red and answered. He explained to Qi''s mother again and hung up the phone. International long distance is very expensive. Although he has a sum of money now, it is to support his mother''s postoperative repair. After hanging up, Qi Fang applied the ointment again. With more and more rashes on his body, he couldn''t resist the impulse to scratch As long as three or five days, Miss Qu said, as long as three or five days. Let''s go. You must bear it for your mother! Qi Fang looked at himself in the mirror and kept saying to himself "Ding Dong!" A doorbell rang. Qi Fang frowned. I don''t know who will come so late He went out of the bathroom, put on a dress and opened the door. But when he saw the man standing at the door, he frowned slightly and asked, "who are you looking for?" "Looking for you..." Chapter 1424 "Me?!" "Who are you? I don''t seem to know you..." "Are you Qi Fang?" Chewing betel nut in his mouth, he looked less than 30 years old. The man dressed in a flowing way raised his eyebrows. Qi Fang looked at him with more doubts. He didn''t understand when he provoked such a person. "Sorry, I don''t know you..." Qi Fang said, trying to close the door. But just as the door was about to close, the betel nut man suddenly pressed his hand on the door and couldn''t close the door. "What the hell do you want to do?" Qi Fang is a little flustered. "Your mother borrowed 10000 yuan from me..." the betel nut man forced his arm and suddenly pushed the door open again. Qi Fang stepped back two steps to stand firm because of inertia. The betel nut man went in and slammed the door. "It was agreed to pay back the money yesterday, but today, I can''t see anyone, so I have to come home and find it..." He said, looking around, "where''s your mother?!" "How can my mother borrow money from you?" She stared with fear in her eyes. The betel nut man sneered and took out an IOU from his pocket. As expected, it said that Qi Fang''s mother borrowed money and fingerprints. The betel nut has been taken back when Qi Nan wants to take it back. "It''s been a day today. I have a good heart, so I don''t count today''s interest..." said the betel nut man. "I borrowed it for ten days, even with interest of 10000 yuan!" "Are you usury?" The betel nut man smiled, "do you think I''m a charity?" Then he smiled, "pay back the money quickly, or... Don''t blame me for being rude." Qi Fang bit his teeth and his eyes were scarlet. He couldn''t help scratching his body because of itching. Betel nut man didn''t ignore the action of letting go, but he didn''t show it. He just fished a chair and put his feet on the armrest of the sofa unscrupulously. "Let''s go, it''s only natural that the mother owes her son... I''m here to collect the money today. Here, it''s best! If I don''t want to give it..." the betel nut man sneered coldly, "that''s to give face without face." Holding hands together, his eyes became scarlet. "Why should I give it to you?" "Why do you say you owe money?" The betel nut man sneered, took out the military thorn in the knife pocket on his lower leg and played with it in his hand. "Let''s put it together. Today, I''ll either give money... Or I''ll always take some ''interest'' back to the boss." He said, his fingers gently wiping the edge of the army thorn, and his whole body was full of bloodthirsty breath. Qi Fang doesn''t know why his mother wants to borrow usury, but he can''t deny it in black and white. Most importantly, he knows the end of offending usury What''s more, if you don''t return it today, you may roll more and more. "I gave you money. Will you pay me back the IOU?" "Yes!" Qi Fang gritted his teeth and turned back to the bedroom to get the money. The betel nut man also kept his word. After getting the money with interest, he gave the loan receipt to Qi Fang, "young man, very personality... You need money in the future. Remember to contact me." With that, he also put down a business card of loan and left. After the betel nut man left, he threw the business card into the dustbin angrily, looked at the IOU, and tore it up angrily. He wanted to call his mother, but he was afraid that it would upset her. Finally... Let it go. ¡­¡­ After the betel nut man got off the car upstairs, he called Xiao Qiang, "brother Qiang, this boy can take out more than 10000 at home. It seems that he is greasy." Xiao Qiang smiled at Xiao Yu and raised his eyebrows. "OK, come back." "Yes." The betel nut man answered, started the car and went to devil "s kiss. Qi Fang is such a good young man. It''s easiest to cheat him. Just imitate her mother''s signature and press one of her fingerprints. A filial son like him will never question his sick mother. But a worker in the first process production line of a gem factory has a monthly salary of four or five thousand, and has to pay his mother''s medical expenses. He can easily take out tens of thousands of yuan. There must be a problem. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze accompanied he Yining downstairs and went upstairs. As soon as he entered the door, he received a short message from Xiao Qiang. "Are you busy?" He Yining looked back at Li Yunze, "if you have something to do, go and be busy." "Nothing." Li Yunze took back his mobile phone, grabbed he Yining''s hand and pulled her into his arms, "what''s important to help you burn calories..." "..." he Yining listened and squinted. "Li Yunze, you really think meat hemp is interesting." "Necessary." Li Yunze''s face had gathered together, "I can''t. the person I like is in front of me. Am I still indifferent?!" Women can never be more cheeky than men in this regard. Often, the solution is one Under the man''s crazy and brave attack, the enemy played the most harmonious repertoire. "Yining..." "Huh?" "Let''s have two more and three more!" "What? Two, three, three... I''m still four or four!" He Yining said discontentedly, "one by one is called one because it is my only one and the only one you left me." "Two two is because we are in pairs, three three is because one plus two equals three!" Li Yunze said as he moved, "don''t think I don''t know. In fact, you are contraception." Why should I feel guilty. There is a boyfriend who is a doctor. It''s very convenient to have any illness or pain on weekdays. However, when you want to do something bad, you will find it very inconvenient. "That thing is bad for your health..." Li Yunze kissed he Yining. "If you don''t want it for the time being, I''ll pay attention." "You haven''t been..." he Yining''s voice is getting smaller and smaller, and his face is getting redder and redder. Li Yunze buried his head in he Yining''s neck nest, his voice was thick and dumb, "why don''t you want it now?" "I think we''ll have a baby after we get married." When my younger sister is born, he Ning still thinks about it one by one Li Yunze stopped. He looked up and looked at he Yining with burning eyes, "I''m sorry, I''m not considerate..." Why did Ning zhe lip shake his head, smiled and hooked Li Yunze''s neck, gently said: "Li Yunze, quickly solve what you want to solve, marry me!" "Are you proposing?" Li Yunze suddenly moved. He Yining exclaimed, and his body began to spasm. He stared angrily at Li Yunze, but he was full of joy. He asked with eyes like silk: "then Li Shao, I have been chasing you since I was young, and now I propose again. Do you agree?" Chapter 1425 "Silly rather, propose..." Li Yunze attached himself and said the second half of the sentence gently and charmingly in his ear, "... That''s what men want to do!" "But you don''t take the initiative!" Why would you rather pick your eyebrows and smile. Li Yunze also smiled, "don''t worry, this time... I will take the initiative." Just when he Ning''s mouth was smiling, Li Yunze made another effort "Well..." He Yining couldn''t stand such stimulation and spilled a sound in his throat. Just before she recovered, Li Yunze had used his sharp sword to tease her nerves. Not only did he tell her in words, he was sure of her, but he was also practicing it. ¡­¡­ Singapore. When the first ray of sunshine falls between heaven and earth in the morning, the air is gradually filled with heat. In the hotel restaurant, Jin shaosi is dealing with things that the company urgently needs him to deal with. "Boss," Lu Fan came over, "Wang Yuanda, they have brought them." Jin shaosi''s subordinates moved and stopped slightly. "How''s the man?" "The two women have collapsed. Wang Yuanda is OK, but it seems that they are also holding up." Lu Fan said. "Let me have breakfast..." As Jin shaosi spoke, he signed the last document and explained a few words to Su ruomin before closing his notebook. Wang Yuanda and others have brought them. Timely and delicious breakfast is put on the table one by one under the dining car driven by the waiter. Jin shaosi didn''t even look at Wang Yuanda and the three of them. He just went to the breakfast table, spread out his napkins gracefully, and began to eat breakfast slowly. The attractive fragrance is filled with the handwriting of famous chefs, coupled with air conditioning and soothing music, which is undoubtedly wonderful for those who enjoy it. However, for the three people who were locked up in a stuffy little room for two days and two nights and only gave water but no food, everything at the moment virtually aroused the desire in their bodies. In particular, Wang Yuanda''s wife and sister-in-law. "Elder sister, I''m so hungry..." my sister looked at the food on the table and her eyes were out. The elder sister swallowed her saliva involuntarily. At the moment, she wanted to come forward and take the attractive pineapple bag. Unfortunately, she just moved and was held by Wang Yuanda. Wang Yuanda is also very hungry. He goes from a stuffy place to an air-conditioned high-end restaurant. In contrast, his nerves will collapse. "You look familiar..." Wang Yuanda''s voice was weak because he had been hungry for two days. Jin shaosi glanced at him lightly, "good memory." "Ace?!" Wang Yuanda asked suspiciously. Jin shaosi put down his knife and fork, took the red wine and shook it gently He didn''t drink, but after smelling the glass, he said something about the glass of red wine. Wang Yuanda''s face was a little ugly. He could not hold his emotions when he saw Jin shaosi. At this moment, I heard him talk about red wine. Almost the first reaction was that the things of that year crossed my mind. Jin shaosi looked at Wang Yuanda''s face and his eyes grew darker. "It''s you who shut us down!" Wang Yuanda asked. Jin shaosi didn''t answer. He just twirled the wine glass and said softly, "I think you should have guessed why I''m looking for you." "I don''t know!" Wang Yuanda said instinctively and hurriedly, but with uneasy eyes, he had betrayed him. Jin shaosi put a faint smile on the corner of his mouth. He didn''t speak anymore. He just looked back and began to eat slowly. This hotel is very famous in the local area. The meals at any time have unique delicacies, which often appear in magazines for many people to see, but can''t enjoy. At the moment, a brain appeared in front of three people who had been hungry for two days. In addition, Jin shaosi''s elegant way of eating undoubtedly tortured their nerves. The two sisters kept swallowing their saliva. Their eyes were shining. They wanted to take things from space. Wang Yuanda turned back and glared at the two sisters. Unfortunately, they both focused on food and didn''t see it at all. He took back his eyes and looked at Jin shaosi again. His eyes fluttered slightly. Wang Yuanda knows how crowded it is here, but Jin shaosi is the only guest in such a large restaurant. Looking at Jin shaosi''s magnanimity, Wang Yuanda guesses that today''s ace is not what he used to be. "Ace," Wang Yuanda shouted, "what do you want?" "What do I want? Didn''t you guess?" Jin shaosi put down his knife and fork, took his napkin and wiped it gently. "It''s very simple. He said, I don''t embarrass you... Don''t say," he paused and glanced at the three people. "Even if it''s Singapore, it''s easy for me to think about the three of you." Most of the oil supply here is Brunei. Unfortunately, he is the man who controls the most oil in Brunei. If you want the three of them to survive, you can''t die. He doesn''t dare to say it elsewhere. Here... Even if the people above see it, they will think they don''t see it. "Husband, did you offend him?" My sister suddenly caught Wang Yuanda. Wang Yuanda didn''t answer her, but confronted Jin shaosi. It''s a pity that the upper class is not doomed. Wang Yuanda knows that he can''t escape today. He didn''t think he could hide things for a lifetime. However, when people live comfortably, they will deceive themselves. Everything has gone with the tide. After all, the dust has settled. Who cares about the fallen family?! "Let them eat first." Wang Yuanda spoke. Jin shaosi gestured slightly. Lu Fan answered clearly and looked at the two sisters, "follow me." "Husband..." "Brother in law?" "Go to dinner first!" Wang Yuanda watched the two sisters and Lu Fan go to the farthest corner before sitting down next to Jin shaosi. He didn''t speak either. He took the water aside, drank it for two, and then began to eat. Jin shaosi didn''t stop and waited quietly. When Wang Yuanda was satisfied, it was half an hour later. "What do you want to ask?" Young secretary Jin raised his eyes slightly and looked at Wang Yuanda''s, "the death of the master and wife." "Car accident! It''s because I went out to chase miss, so the car accident happened..." Wang Yuanda pondered slightly. "I don''t know whether the car accident is an accident or man-made, as determined by the traffic accident." "Why do you think it''s man-made?" Wang Yuanda sneered, "isn''t it because you think their death is abnormal, so you tracked us down?" "Why go after Yining?" "My wife and sister chewed some tongue roots and let sister-in-law Feng hear it," Wang Yuanda said. "Sister-in-law Feng was afraid that the young lady would have an accident with Li Yunze, so she went to the master and wife..." "What did they say?" Jin shaosi''s eyes were getting colder and colder, and his voice was filled with the oppressive force of Ling ran. He asked slowly, "what can make the master and wife so afraid that Miss Li Yunze?" Chapter 1426 Every time Jin shaosi said a word, Wang Yuanda felt more pressure in the air. He couldn''t help swallowing under Jin shaosi''s fierce sight. "I don''t know what''s going on..." Wang Yuanda said. Jin shaosi suddenly narrowed his eyes, "don''t you know?" He sneered, "you don''t know. It seems that I''m going to ask your wife and your sister-in-law." "They don''t know." Wang Yuanda was a little anxious. "Even if you ask them, they can''t answer." "I don''t know. How can sister-in-law Feng hear you chewing your tongue?" Jin shaosi asked coldly, "in my impression, sister-in-law Feng is not such an impulsive person." "I know. I say we don''t know. It''s hard to believe." Wang Yuanda laughed at himself, "even if it''s me, I don''t believe it... But we really don''t know." Jin shaosi''s face was slightly heavy, waiting for Wang Yuanda to continue. "At the beginning, someone contacted my wife and said that as long as they received the phone, they would say those words near sister-in-law Feng and let sister-in-law Feng hear..." Wang Yuanda had some pain on his face. "He also said to give them a sum of money." "My wife thinks she''s a liar, and I don''t believe it either." Wang Yuanda continued, "but people are like this. They are greedy... We tried to contact and received an advance payment." "How did you get in touch?" "Network." Jin shaosi''s eyes became colder and colder. "The master and wife are very kind to everyone. You can really do it for some money." "The problem is not one." Wang Yuanda said, "fifty thousand yuan for one person..." At that time, 50000 yuan may not be much for many people, but for ordinary workers, it was at least a year''s salary, not to mention a small part of the advance payment. "At that time, because what we were going to say was not important, we were fascinated to say it." The turtle on Wang Yuanda''s face cracked and regretted, "if we knew it would kill the master and wife, we wouldn''t dare to ask for the money." What could I do?! Things have happened and the money has been taken. They can only bite their teeth as if they don''t know anything. "Later, because he family fell down, the servants of he family scattered..." Wang Yuanda no longer needed Jin shaosi to ask, but directly said the following things, "after this happened, we didn''t care about asking for the final payment, but the other party kept his word and called us 200000 each." Wang Yuanda said that because of his guilty conscience, he nervously took the cup and took a big sip. After calming down a little, he continued: "it''s actually a little unexpected to immigrate here..." "Oh?" Jin shaosi said softly. Wang Yuanda looked at Jin shaosi and said, "originally, Qu Weiwei wanted sister-in-law Feng to immigrate. She said that the jewelry she designed was favored by the rich and sold the design back to give sister-in-law Feng a good life." "Sister-in-law Feng didn''t come and said she just wanted to go back to her hometown..." Wang Yuanda drank again and calmed down. "We were guilty and didn''t dare to stay in Los Angeles. Even if things fell on us one day, we went to ask Qu Weiwei about Singapore immigrants." Jin shaosi sneered, "then, because sister-in-law Feng doesn''t immigrate, Qu Weiwei has a buyer channel to sell the design in her hand. Thinking about immigration doesn''t have to be wasted. Just help you and you pay her some remuneration." Wang Yuanda widened his eyes, "you, how do you know?!" Jin shaosi didn''t answer, but continued to ask coldly, "didn''t you doubt anything at that time?" "At that time, because of fear, I just wanted to leave quickly. Naturally, I didn''t think about anything..." Wang Yuanda said. "But after coming to Singapore, I always felt that things were like a net. A hand picked us up and went the same way." He lowered his eyes and scratched a touch of cold at the bottom of his eyes. When he dispersed, he raised his eyes and looked at shaosi Jin. "Later, I wondered if the person who traded with us was Qu Weiwei''s channel?" Wang Yuanda guessed, "the other party wants his industry, so he created such a thing." Jin shaosi didn''t speak, but his thoughts crossed at the bottom of his eyes. "Those tongue chewing words seem nothing special, but they catch sister-in-law Feng''s psychology of caring for her." Wang Yuanda said, "I haven''t figured out what information is hidden that will make the master and wife worry. Just, Qu Weiwei accidentally asked sister-in-law Feng to immigrate, or when we have the chance to hear..." "Qu Weiwei is the daughter of sister-in-law Feng. Naturally, she knows that sister-in-law Feng will worry when she hears those words. She also knows that sister-in-law Feng won''t immigrate at all." Wang Yuanda slowly clenched his hand. "If Qu Weiwei didn''t have the ability to take out so much money, I even doubted whether Qu Weiwei was the ghost from beginning to end." Jin shaosi gently tapped his fingers on the table, which was very rhythmic, but the sound fell into Wang Yuanda''s ears, which was already tense at the moment, which was a little strange and harsh. "Either Qu Weiwei cooperates with others..." Jin shaosi said slowly, "or she also took advantage to do things for others." After all, the most direct way to get rid of the label of "servant daughter" is to destroy Hejia. The death of the master and his wife reduced the winery that had been poorly managed because of the poor grape varieties in those two years to an auction. "Let you and your wife and sister-in-law shut up." Jin shaosi got up, "of course, if you want to die, no one can stop you." Jin shaosi looked at Wang Yuanda deeply and turned to leave the restaurant. Before taking a few steps, Jin shaosi stopped, looked back at Wang Yuanda, said gently but domineering: "I forgot to tell you. When you three just came in, I completed the acquisition of your three working places..." He smiled lightly at the corners of his mouth, but that kind of smile showed indifference, "that is to say, your life and death are really in my hands." Jin shaosi looked at Wang Yuanda''s twitching face with satisfaction and withdrew his sight indifferently. He didn''t stop this time and left with big steps The plane climbed up with a roar. When it docked at Los Angeles International Airport, it was past dinner time. Jin shaosi got off the plane and called Li Yunze, "where can I meet?" "Blues..." Li Yunze said, "I''ve started the wine, waiting for you to come." "You know I''m back?" Asked Jin shaosi. Li Yunze''s eyes were slightly deep. "I heard there was a problem here. As long as you have the result, you must come back at the first time!" Chapter 1427 He Yining propped up his cheeks with one hand and poked the rice in front of her casually with the other, because he was absent-minded thinking about what Qu Weiwei wanted to do. Fang Zihan is basically the same action, and even his face is crossed. Yan Miao couldn''t stand rolling his eyes. "I said, are you two here to eat or poke rice?" Speaking of poking, he Yining and Fang Zihan subconsciously took a look at each other. Then one looked strange and the other turned red. "Tut tut..." yanmiao simply put down his chopsticks, put his arms around his chest, leaned back on the chair and looked at the two people with rich facial expressions. "It seems that there are some things I don''t know between you." He Yining wanted to talk about what happened in the hospital restaurant that day, but Fang Zihan kicked him "severely" under the table. "Your feet are too heavy..." he Yining wailed immediately. Fang Zihan''s face was even redder, but under the eyes of yanmiao''s searchlight, he could only hesitate and say, "it''s nothing, just some unspeakable friction with the man you saw in the night market." For this reason, yanmiao immediately understood. "It seems that you have met hand to hand." Yan Miao''s words determine the heaven and earth. It''s impossible to describe how to deal with Zihan every time. Why Ning zhe smiled, winked at yanmiao and looked at Fang Zihan one after another. "Come on, what''s going on?" Yanmiao opened his mouth with leisure. "Want to resign, want to change jobs..." Fang Zihan gnashed his teeth at the thought of Pei Shengyao, "but I can''t afford the compensation without approval." "And then?!" Fang Zihan became more angry. "I can''t be a paparazzi in the near future. What special report do I want to go to the army to do?" At this point, her face collapsed and her shoulders drooped. "The most important thing is, follow-up reports... I may have to go to practice with you. Can you imagine how hard I am?" "It''s all right. Anyway, when you''re a paparazzi, it''s all day and night." Yanmiao smiled and comforted. "Can it be the same? One is interest, the other is catching up with ducks..." Fang Zihan said gnashing his teeth. "I''m curious. Are you and Pei Shengyao just playing or serious?" He Yining asked. "The ghost is serious with him..." Fang Zihan glanced. "Looking at the appearance of a flirtatious bitch, I''m serious with him. I don''t know how to die." Why should I rather wring my eyebrows slightly? I don''t have much opinion on Fang Zihan''s idea. After all, the relationship between men and women is not the last step in bed. "Pei Shengyao..." why did Ning whisper the name, "it should have nothing to do with the Pei family?" "What Pei family?!" Yan Miao asked curiously. He Yining looked at two curious people. "It''s the Pei family who is as proud of military and political affairs as the Lin family..." she said, shaking her head. "But it shouldn''t be. The Pei family has a strict family education. Everyone has been thrown into the army since childhood. In the end, they develop in military and political affairs. It''s impossible to work in a controversial place like a magazine." Maybe it just needs to make a wrong report. Like Pei''s family name, it''s just a coincidence "Who cares? Anyway, I''m not going to go to the end with him." Fang Zihan has a strange voice. Yan Miao sighed, "men and women... It''s really the most difficult problem in the world." He Yining stared at yanmiao unhappily, thinking about Qu Weiwei all the time in his heart, and was a little angry. She didn''t believe Li Yunze''s words, but was afraid that Qu Weiwei would turn around and do something sharp. After all, a person who can be cruel to herself, she is really afraid that Qu Weiwei will do something crazy. ¡­¡­ Jin shaosi went directly to the blues. He didn''t know this place until he came back. Different from Hejia winery, it is basically the wine produced by Hejia vineyard. It is a private place, and most of the people who come here are insiders. Naturally, most of the wines here are luxuries in red wine. "Latour in ''76," Jin shaosi sat down and glanced at the red wine bottle, "very willing." "I''ve always been generous with my friends." Li Yunze said slowly, "even if it''s just a temporary friend." Jin shaosi did not laugh, but there was a cold sneer of his rival in love at the bottom of his eyes. Li Yunze asked the waiter to get dinner. "There are no meals here. You can have some takeout just brought by the way from outside." Jin shaosi is not a hypocritical person, although pizza and top red wine are a little weird. While eating, Jin shaosi said the news he got. After hearing that Qu Weiwei threatened he Yining, he twisted his eyebrow and said, "look, there''s someone behind Qu Weiwei." "Moreover, this person, from the beginning to now, may have been following." Li Yunze said, "but not tan Zhonglang." Tan Zhonglang''s details have been touched these two days. He doesn''t have so much ability to support Qu Weiwei. The most important thing is, how can Qu Weiwei look up to tan Zhonglang who also works in what family?! "In other words, Qu Weiwei is likely to know that thing..." Jin shaosi pondered, "or the people behind her know." "Now it''s certain that the accident has nothing to do with Yining," Li Yunze said. "So I can ask Yining first. What was the purpose of looking for me in those years?" Jin Shaosi nodded, stopped, and suddenly Tucao, "I am a rival, why should I make complaints about what I can do for you?" "Because your rival wants to see Yining happy..." Li Yunze said slowly. The two men have opposite eyes. They have the pleasure of cooperation and the tension between their rivals. The night pervaded the whole city of Los Angeles. Although the late autumn became colder and colder after rain, there was always a trace of warmth for those who looked forward to it. After he Yining and yanmiao broke up, they sent a text message to Li Yunze: I''ll go home first. Li Yunze replied quickly: I''ll come to you later. He Yining smiled and said "OK", stuffed his hands into his pockets and walked to the subway station Just as she entered the entrance of the subway station, a man with a cap pressed the brim slightly and followed into the subway station. "Arrive ahead..." The sound of broadcasting came from the subway station. Why did you rather go to the door. At the adjacent door, the man with a duck tongue hat looked through the crowd and found he Yining. Why Ning walked to the community after leaving the subway station, although it was not too late, but because the community she lived in was the family area, coupled with the cold at night, it was deserted everywhere after entering the community. The man with a duck tongue hat looked left and right. After confirming that there was no one nearby, he Yining''s line of sight suddenly became overcast Then he quickened his pace and kept up with he Yining. Chapter 1428 He Yining had some empty thoughts, because the dangerous breath suddenly approached and suddenly startled. Just when the man with a duck tongue hat was no more than seven or eight meters away from why Ning, and why Ning wanted to turn back, suddenly... A voice came from one side of the road. "Doctor he, are you back?" The voice fell, and then a man in his thirties pulled a woman and ran over with a padded step. He Yining''s heart suddenly startled and subconsciously looked at the direction of speaking. At the same time, the duck tongue hat man''s steps slightly stagnated, and then he crossed he Yining and left according to the just pace rhythm. It''s as if it''s just a coincidence from beginning to end. Yu Guang, the man who was talking head-on, crossed the cap man, but he smiled at he Yining with a faint glance. "Dr. he, I live in the same building with you. I''m on the third floor." The man introduced himself first. He Yining looked at the man suspiciously. Although they were in the same building, in fact, except for their neighbors, they had little chance to know each other. "Excuse me... What''s the matter?" The man grinned and said with some embarrassment, "well, my wife has something to ask for the help of a doctor... She just went to your house and no one was there. She wanted to take a walk downstairs. Unexpectedly, she met you." The woman pushed the man, and her sight just crossed and turned to the duck tongue hat man in another path, "OK, I told Dr. he, you are a man, go aside..." With that, he pulled some people who still couldn''t figure out why they would rather go aside. "Doctor he, it''s like this. I want to have a child, and then I want to ask you first..." the woman said, "I''m a little embarrassed to go to the hospital, just..." The woman lowered her voice and looked embarrassed under the dim night light. Why should Ning kindly answer the question to the woman? Then, while chatting, three people entered the building. The man with a duck tongue hat showed his body slightly from behind the shadow of the tree. He looked at the three people who entered the building door, and his eyes sank. He looked at the back of he Yining, who disappeared in the depths of his sight, spit secretly, thought he was unlucky, and turned away reluctantly. However, the man with a cap on the duck''s tongue didn''t expect that the mantis would catch cicadas and the Yellow finches would be behind. Just as he turned and left the community, someone was carrying a cigarette in his pocket with one hand and followed the man casually. Different from the tracking method of a man with a duck tongue hat, the person tracking him is obviously much more professional. Everyone won''t follow for too long. Even, some people go forward originally, but their steps are not as good as the man with a duck tongue hat. They are "caught up" by him and can only follow ¡­¡­ Li Yunze looked at Xiao Yu''s text message and scratched a cold hiss at the corner of his mouth. "What''s the matter?" Asked Jin shaosi. Li Yunze looked back and put down his cell phone. "There''s a clown jumping around." Jin shaosi''s eyes were deep and his eyes crossed with doubts. He didn''t continue to ask this. He just asked curiously, "seriously, who are the people you put in the winery? It doesn''t look like the Li family will make friends." The Li family is a family of medicine. They don''t dye black, but there is an unusual smell on those people. "Friends." Li Yunze didn''t say much. He and the Dragon owl realized that they were in love with each other. That was what happened after Beichen came back from the Mo palace. Jin shaosi doesn''t know. Naturally, Qu Weiwei doesn''t know what people around him can use now. "Is it a wave on heaven night?" Asked Jin shaosi. "Yes." Li Yunze answered faintly and didn''t hide it. Jin shaosi''s Mou Guang stared deeply at Xia Li Yunze, "seeing that you are so obsessed with Yining, although you are unwilling to let go, it''s good and comforted." Li Yunze just smiled faintly and didn''t say anything. He has always been such a character that he doesn''t care whether it''s good or bad. If you care... You will do your best. "When are you going to contact Qu Weiwei?" Asked Jin shaosi. "The day after tomorrow!" Since Qu Weiwei gave Yining three days, he naturally gave her the same time to suffer in the waiting. Li Yunze left blues and went directly to he Yining. He tried, and sure enough, why didn''t he know someone was following her from beginning to end It''s also a temporary idea to arrange people around her. Qu Weiwei can do harm to other people''s health and has to force Yining. He is afraid that she will jump over the wall. Thanks to a layer of consideration, who would know what would happen tonight? "Li Yunze, what are you thinking?" He Yining felt that Li Yunze was worried. Li Yunze raised his hand. He Yining walked over and sat down on his side while handing him his hand. "Yining, there''s something I don''t understand, but I don''t know how to ask." "What?" Li Yunze deeply condenses why Yining. Although the accident had nothing to do with Yining, it was because of the accident after Yining. "Li Yunze, what are you trying to say?" Why would you rather wring your eyebrows. "I don''t know how to mention what happened that day," Li Yunze sighed. "I just want to know why you came to me that day?" "That day..." why did Ning lie in the corner of his mouth, "the day Mom and Dad had a car accident?" Li Yunze nodded solemnly. He Yining was obviously silent. When Li Yunze wanted to say no more, she lowered her eyes and said, "I just heard Qu Weiwei and you... And then said that you two were open at school, so I passed..." Li Yunze frowned, "is that why?" He Yining nodded, his face obviously looked at Li Yunze with some pain. If Mom and dad really had a car accident because they chased her Feeling he Yining''s sadness, Li Yunze swept her, "what Yining, uncle he and aunt he want most is to see you happy... And your happiness is to be with me." He Yining didn''t speak, just hugged Li Yunze and closed his eyes. ¡­¡­ The three-day deadline passed in an instant. Qu Weiwei is holding a drawing pen in her hand. There are half Painted Jewelry patterns on the drawing paper. "Dong Dong!" Du Peishan knocked on the door and handed Qu Weiwei the folder in her hand. "Vivian, the jewelry on Mrs. Feng''s side has been basically completed and is making the final inlay. It is expected to be completed next week." Qu Weiwei nodded. "There''s nothing else. I''ll get off work first." "Yes." Qu Weiwei answered. Outside the studio, there was a rustling sound, which was the sound of studio employees preparing to leave work. Qu Weiwei didn''t move. Her eyes fell in front. There were autumn leaves falling slowly from the window after a gust of wind. He Yining, it seems that you are going to be strong until the last minute! Qu Weiwei gradually narrowed her eyes, took back her sight, picked up her mobile phone and wanted to call he Yining. Before dialing out, the mobile phone rang. The caller was Li Yunze. Qu Weiwei wondered and wondered if he Yining had proposed to separate from Li Yunze, so he was depressed and came to her for comfort. "Yunze..." "My car is outside, come out!" Qu Weiwei had a surprise across her eyes, "OK, wait for me a few minutes." Then she hung up the phone, packed her things, took her bag and hurried out of the studio. Sure enough, Li Yunze''s car is outside. When she got into the car, Qu Weiwei asked, "why did you come all of a sudden?" Li Yunze looked at Qu Weiwei, didn''t speak, but just started the car. Inside the car, there was an unusual smell. Qu Weiwei didn''t have the surprise she had just imagined. Gradually, she felt the force. Silence all the way. When the car stopped on the road next to a reservoir in the suburbs, Qu Weiwei looked around. Because there is no one, everywhere is full of depression, which makes people feel a little uncomfortable. "Yunze, what are you doing here?" Qu Weiwei frowned at the bleak outside the car. "Weiwei, since this play can''t be played anymore, why should we continue to play?" Li Yunze''s voice was calm without much emotion. Qu Weiwei slowly looked at Li Yunze. At the right time, he also looked sideways. "Now that everyone knows it, it''s unnecessary, isn''t it?" Li Yunze made a sneer at the corners of his mouth. Chapter 1429 "It seems that Yining told you!" Qu Weiwei immediately changed her cold face. "Do you think she would say?" Li Yunze sneered, "you should know best that she will choose to step back for me." Li Yunze didn''t say that he Yining told him Qu Weiwei''s threat that day. Now someone is following him. Although he can''t be sure it''s Qu Weiwei''s person, he doesn''t want to make Qu Weiwei really anxious and jump over the wall. "What do you mean today?" Qu Weiwei gritted her teeth and asked. "I''m just cheating you. Sure enough..." Li Yunze took back his eyes and fell in front again. "Weiwei, I don''t want to think you so unbearable, but you are so unbearable!" Qu Weiwei twitched at the corners of her mouth, and her breath was a little messy. "I can''t stand it!" Qu Weiwei sneered, "Li Yunze, when you said I was unbearable, what about you? What did you do to me?" "Now that we all know that each other is acting, let''s end the farce." Li Yunze tilted his head. "I don''t want to make things big..." paused, and his eyes gradually deepened. "I want the truth of that year. You don''t know, but Yining comes to find my truth!" "I said I didn''t know. Isn''t it ridiculous for you to ask me?" Qu Weiwei slowly clenched her hand. "Since you want to know so much, you don''t have to act with why Yining now. Go ask her!" "You really don''t know?" Li Yunze''s voice became cold. "Or, you know, I don''t want to say it at all?" "I don''t know!" Qu Weiwei roared, directly unfastened her seat belt, opened the door and got out of the car. Li Yunze also got out of the car. When Qu Weiwei wanted to leave, he grabbed her and pressed on the door. "Li Yunze, what do you want to do?" Qu Weiwei roared like crazy. Li Yunze said coldly, "I want the truth of that year!" "The truth is that he Tianshu and Meng Ya died in a car accident because of why Yining!" Qu Weiwei stared. "No matter how you check, you can''t change it. This is a fact!" "Really?" Li Yunze''s eyes became cold. "Is it a fact or a man-made promotion? Don''t you know?" "Why should I know?" Qu Weiwei sneered, "the decline of he family is doomed, and no one can stop it." Li Yunze''s eyes became cold and deep. "Qu Weiwei, I''ll give you a chance. Don''t you want it?" "Ha ha..." Qu Weiwei sneered, "I don''t need you to give me a chance." She clenched her teeth, squeezed her words out of her teeth, looked at Li Yunze''s increasingly heavy face, and suddenly said with crazy blood: "Li Yunze, you guessed right. I do know why he Tianshu went after he Yining, but... Do you think I can say it?" "You do know." Li Yunze spoke coldly. "Yes, I know, but I don''t tell you, so that you don''t suffer, you know?" Qu Weiwei smiled sharply. "Think about it. If I told you, you and he Yining might never be together." "Isn''t that just what you want?" Li Yunze sneered and didn''t believe Qu Weiwei''s words at the moment. It''s a very contradictory heart. I''m sure Qu Weiwei knows what happened that year, but he knows she''s talking nonsense now. "No, you''re wrong!" Qu Weiwei laughed more and more horribly, and she didn''t care about her image at the moment. She just pushed Li Yunze away. "There are a lot of things that will be shocking only when she finds them, won''t they?" "Are you determined not to say?" "Will you leave why?" "No!" "Then why did I say it? Did I say it to give you time to deal with it?" Qu Weiwei smiled coldly, and her eyes were full of turbid breath. "Li Yunze, you know? Before I went to find he Yining, I thought that as long as you don''t continue to lie to me, I can''t do that... But you all treat me as a fool!" "Who told you?" Li Yunze asked coldly. "Why should I tell you?" Qu Weiwei said coldly, "you have so many things you want to know, check them yourself!" Li Yunze sneered coldly, "they have already torn their faces. Who said, is it still important?" "Yes, it doesn''t matter..." Qu Weiwei has a layer of faint water mist at the bottom of her eyes, but more of it is the heavy and violent under madness. "Li Yunze, sooner or later, that matter will make you and he Yining, pain, inaction, desire and health!" Qu Weiwei uttered word by word "pain is not ready to live", as if she had put down a magic spell. She didn''t know about it, but she hoped that he Yining and Li Yunze would die hard. She did so much, she worked so hard, and finally she couldn''t get anything?! She is unwilling! He Yining, I won''t let you live! Qu Weiwei''s eyes were shrouded in hatred under anger. She took back her sight, turned around and walked on the way back At that moment, tears fell down. It seems that all the expectations and beautiful fantasies dissipated at the moment when Li Yunze tore his face. "Qu Weiwei," Li Yunze''s words came from behind, "when people are irrational, what they do will only make them doomed..." Qu Weiwei stopped, but didn''t look back. "Everyone has a pursuit, Li Yunze. Why would you rather have it? I also have it!" Qu Weiwei gnashed her teeth. "Since you are so confident, I can only do my best..." She didn''t go on, but the bloodthirsty overflow in her eyes explained everything. "Can that really make Yining and I feel miserable? Why not wait and see?" Li Yunze sneered, "you underestimate my feelings and your love for me." Li Yunze''s words fell on Qu Weiwei''s heart like a needle. She turned back and ignored the exposure of tears in front of Li Yunze. "OK, let''s wait and see..." In a word, it''s clear that Qu Weiwei is normal at the moment, but she has a sense of desolation. Li Yunze''s eyes sank slightly, and a sneer crossed the corner of his mouth. When the car passed by Qu Weiwei, it swept up the fallen leaves on the ground and set off a cold wind. Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze''s car running out like a flying arrow, clenched her teeth and clenched her hands, her face twisted with resentment. "He Yining..." Qu Weiwei gritted her teeth and roared, "you will be worse off than death!" After she yelled, she took out her mobile phone and dialed he Yining "Qu Weiwei, I won''t leave Yunze," he Yining said when he answered the phone. "Yunze already knows what you threaten me. He will deal with it. I believe him!" "He Yining, I''m calling to tell you that you''ve completely lost your chance..." Qu Weiwei laughed wildly. "I wish you and Li Yunze a good time together. Otherwise, how can you afford your parents who had a car accident because of you and Li Yunze?!" Chapter 1430 Qu Weiwei dropped a bomb in why Yining''s head, which made her unable to react for a moment. "He Yining, you will get retribution..." Qu Weiwei smiled sharply. "You must be well with Li Yunze. In that way, you will know that everything is not hard, but doomed... Ha ha..." The voice like ghosts echoed in he Yining''s ears, which was so harsh. She tried to bear it hard, so that she could suppress such sadness and not think about Qu Weiwei, who deliberately aroused her guilt. "Indeed," he Yining calmed down, "some things are doomed..." she sneered, "for example, no matter how noble you pretend, you can''t cover up the dirt in your heart!" He Yining finished and hung up without giving Qu Weiwei a chance to speak. However, the feeling in my heart was spreading after I hung up the phone. He Yining called Li Yunze uneasily, "you went to find Qu Weiwei." "Yes." Li Yunze answered, "did she call you to provoke?!" "Yes!" Why should I rather reply with a dull voice, "Li Yunze, I''m worried..." "Don''t worry, leave it to me." Li Yunze said and suddenly thought of something, "also, if Qu Weiwei asks about this matter, don''t say you told me, let her think I guessed and forced you to say." "Why?" He Yining doesn''t understand. "Good, just listen to me, or disturb my steps." Li Yunze''s voice was soft, but it was indisputable. He Yining''s brain is not enough to face Li Yunze. When he said this, he thought it was part of his plan and answered angrily. "Really no problem?" Finally, he Yining asked again. Li Yunze smiled and was teased by he Yining. "Don''t worry, I''ll solve it soon." "Oh..." why would you rather curl your lips? "I''m going to pick up one tomorrow." "Yining, don''t pick it up recently." "Huh?" "Didn''t you say you wanted to learn the violin one by one?" Li Yunze said, "I called Spencer''s principal before. Recently, an alumni has an expert in this field to teach back to school. It''s more than enough to be a teacher one by one." "But you don''t need to come back at the weekend?" Why would you rather wring your eyebrows. "I usually have big classes, but I can have small classes on weekends..." Li Yunze continued. "You go and ask your ideas one by one tomorrow. If she wants, let her study in school." After a pause, Li Yunze then said, "Yining, you should understand that if our family really has thoughts on Xiaojie in the future, she can only have proud and charming capital if she enriches herself." Why Ning deflated his mouth and asked with hatred: "Li Yunze, do you mean that I was too free when I was a child, so I didn''t have the capital to be proud?" "I didn''t say!" "That''s what you mean..." Li Yunze smiled. "Of course, I don''t mind if you have to think so." "Li Yunze!" "Although I like you to call me by name and surname," Li Yunze looked at the cars blocked in front of him and said slowly, "but should you change your name occasionally?" Why would you rather smile and ask, "for what?" "You see, Jian Mo usually calls Beichen ''ah Chen'', and sometimes Gu Zong... But many times, she will call ''husband'' or something!" Li Yunze preached. "They are husband and wife, we are not!" "OK, why Yining, I found it. Now you have proud capital..." "Yes, that''s what you gave me!" Listening to why Yining''s happy voice, Li Yunze''s eyes softened a lot, "Yining, are you happy?" "Happy!" "Feel happy?" Li Yunze asked again. "Happiness..." why Ning''s smiling mouth explains everything. Li Yunze also smiled at the corners of his mouth and said in a soft and soothing voice, "silly Ning, you will always be happy and happy..." his eyes were deep, "because I will always be by your side." If someone asks him Yining, what is your happiness and happiness? She will tell you loudly that there is a person named Li Yunze. As long as she is around her, she is happy and happy. Why Ning''s nose suddenly sour, "Li Yunze, how do you know this?" Li Yunze leaned slightly against the seat, and his eyes were affectionate. Once I didn''t think about it, now in retrospect, why is he Yining the whole youth, and is he not a he Yining? It seems that every time she says something about him, he always happens to pass by or pass by This may be fate. ¡­¡­ Qi Fang''s itching is uncomfortable. The ointment can be suppressed for a while before, but it can last for two or three days. Obviously, the ointment doesn''t work anymore. "We can''t handle your situation." The doctor frowned, "I suggest you go to a bigger hospital, such as the third class or the third special... Your situation..." The doctor frowned, shook his head and sighed, "if you have the ability, you''d better go to Huakang. The medical equipment and medical capital there are the best in the country, not to mention they also have their own drugs." Qi Fang frowned, "I heard that the medical expenses over there are very expensive." The doctor nodded. "In your current situation, procrastination will only be more difficult. You''d better go to see it early! Don''t wait for the delay to be serious, it will be more expensive at that time, and it may have a greater impact on your body." Qi Fang listened and sighed, "thank you, doctor." He got up, got out of the hospital and called Qu Weiwei However, no one answered. Qi Fang had to send a text message to Qu Weiwei: Miss Qu, the doctor said my situation was a little serious. What happened to you? I don''t want my mother to be optimistic, but I have become a burden. Qi Fang waited until the text message was sent successfully, then he gently scratched his body and walked outside the hospital When the talent came out of the gate of the hospital, Qi Fang was stopped. "You..." "Get in the car!" "I... ah! What are you doing?" Qi Fang just wanted to refuse. People had been forcibly stuffed into the business car. Just when someone was curious about what happened, the car had started and left "Who are you?" Qi Fang trembled with fear. The people in the car ignored him, just took out his mobile phone from his pocket and looked through the dialing records and text messages. "Uncomfortable?" Xiao Heng sat on the co pilot and looked back at the back row of the oblique angle. "Tell me about you. A good person has to break his body. As for you?" Qi Fang stared at Xiao Heng timidly. Xiao Heng looked back. "Let''s go, it''s very simple..." he said slowly, "as long as you tell me about the activities between you and Qu Weiwei, someone will be responsible for your disease, even your mother''s disease!" Chapter 1431 "Me, you... What did you say?" Qi Fang began to beat the drum in his heart, "what business, I don''t understand what you''re talking about?" Xiao Heng turned back and looked at Qi Fang, with a cold smile on his lips. "You know what to do." Xiao Heng looked at the person under his hand holding the mobile phone, "the text message you just sent above has not explained everything?" "I''m just her worker. I want to see a doctor..." Qi Fang said hurriedly, "isn''t that kind of text message normal?" Xiao Heng raised his eyebrows and nodded his head, as if he was quite satisfied with the reason of letting go. "Let''s go, Qu Weiwei offends those who can''t offend, and it''s hard to protect herself right away." Xiao Heng raised his eyebrow and said, "are you sure she has time to take care of you and your mother?" Qi Fang''s face became worse and worse. He was not afraid of what had happened to him. He was afraid that his mother''s disease could not be cured. He was afraid that something had happened to him and no one would take care of his mother. "Of course, you can also choose to believe that Qu Weiwei can look after your mother''s illness..." Xiao Heng''s voice was slightly cold. "Even believe that Qu Weiwei can make you healthy." Qi Fang''s heart was disturbed by Xiao Heng. In addition, Qu Weiwei didn''t answer the phone and didn''t reply to the text message. He has begun to be nervous. But even so, he didn''t turn back immediately. "Who the hell are you?" Asked Qi Fang. Xiao Heng looked at Qi Fang and didn''t speak. He just motioned to the people below to give Qi Fang his mobile phone. Are these people not afraid of him calling the police? "Don''t move any crooked thoughts..." Xiao Heng said, "because then you will die faster." Qi Fang''s face turned pale and his body trembled. He didn''t know whether it was because of fear or the itching rash on his body. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze listened to Xiao Qiang and frowned slightly. "In other words, in foreign countries these years, she has been close to Qu Weiwei, such as Du Peishan in her studio and Meng Yi in consignment?" Xiao Qiang nodded. "The background of the two people is very clean, and I used my relationship. They have nothing special except their contact with Qu Weiwei on jewelry and occasional private parties." Li Yunze frowned slightly. He felt right. There must be someone behind Qu Weiwei. "However, if your guess is right, that person should not be Du Peishan and Meng Yi." Xiao Qiang looked at Xiao Yu, "what do you think?" "We can start with the person who bought the family." Xiao Yu said, "Du Peishan and Meng Yi also let people follow and see the momentum." After a pause, Xiao Yu said, "however, a person has done nothing for so many years. He just contacted Qu Weiwei on jewelry. Either he played a big chess or there is really nothing to check." "The problem is, no matter Du Peishan and Meng Yi, if they are the people behind them, what is their purpose?" Xiao Qiang shrugged. "The purpose is to let Qu Weiwei and Li Shao together?" This purpose is obviously ridiculous. Not to mention Xiao Qiang and Xiao Yu, who are wandering in the dark world, Li Yunze himself feels extremely ridiculous. "Did the man who followed Yining find it?" "I contacted Qu Weiwei. She should have sent it out." Li Yunze frowned, "sure enough..." "Li Shao, what are you going to do next?" Xiao Yu asked. Li Yunze''s eyes crossed the indifference, "treat the other body with the other way. If she wants to die, then I''ll let her die." Xiao Yu and Xiao Qiang looked at each other, and they had an idea at the moment. At the moment, Li Shao must have spent too long with brother Xiao and Chen Shao, and he is also contaminated with Jianghu Qi. ¡­¡­ Meng Yi and Du Peishan are eating roast duck in a roast duck restaurant just opened in Los Angeles. The crisp duck skin is dipped in sauce and wrapped in pancakes with shredded green onions. The taste is particularly satisfying. "Meng Yi, why don''t you ask Vivian to come and eat together?" Du Peishan asked with a mouthful of incense. Meng Yi smiled, "do you think she will come to eat this?" Du Peishan tilted her mouth and shook her head. "It doesn''t look good to eat like this. She doesn''t like it all the time." "That''s it." Meng Yi smiled and raised his eyebrows. "Do you want another half roast duck?" Du Peishan''s eyes are bright. While struggling with eating too much at night, she has no way to give up the appearance of delicious food, which makes Meng Yi endure more than Jun. Looking at Du Peishan''s happy eating, Meng Yi''s eyes flashed a touch of coldness. For so many years, he didn''t do anything, just waiting for the opportunity... How could Qu Weiwei make him fail?! Since Qu Weiwei threatened he Yining with Qi Fang, he has left everything clean with him. Like Du Peishan, who is just Qu Weiwei''s work and equivalent to outreach, how can he be suspected ¡­¡­ They looked out of the car with doubts on their faces. "Go home," Xiao Heng smiled. "We just take you for a ride. Do you really think you want to kidnap you or what?" Qi Fang swallowed involuntarily. In that way, he obviously thought he was kidnapped. "Get out of the car," Xiao Heng motioned to his younger brother to open the door. "Let''s go. You have to think about it. People only have one life. Do you want to stand on the side of the strong and be your filial son, or do you choose the wrong way, not only harming yourself, but also harming your mother." Qi Fang stopped trying to get off and looked at Xiao Heng. His face obviously changed. Xiao Heng has a smile on his mouth. The poor man must be hateful. If he doesn''t know his choice, no one can save him. After Qi Fang returned home, he called Qu Weiwei again, but no one answered. His heart was restless. The itching on his body and Xiao Heng''s words undoubtedly made him swing. Qu Weiwei was lying on the bar counter of the bar, drinking one cup after another, with scarlet eyes. She didn''t know whether she was stained by wine or because of the sadness of hate. "Another drink!" Qu Weiwei dimly pushed the cup to the bartender. The bartender handed Qu Weiwei a glass of whisky with ice, looked at her lovelorn look and shook her head. Qu Weiwei''s eyes were unreal. She happened to see a pair of lovers over there, and she felt very hurt. "Li... Yunze, burp..." Qu Weiwei''s big tongue murmured, "you... Treat... Me... I... I must... Destroy... Destroy you... Burp..." Qu Weiwei pulled down the corners of her mouth and took out her mobile phone. She didn''t take care of the missed calls and text messages. With instinct, she entered the mailbox. There was water mist at the bottom of her eyes, which was mixed with the pleasure of crazy revenge. "Ha ha..." Qu Weiwei smiled and sent the information she had prepared in advance to the media she had contacted earlier. "Don''t think... Burp... I... I don''t know... It''s useless to report you... Burp..." Qu Weiwei looked at the email and her eyes became more illusory. "Do you really think I''m... Stupid?" She grinned, but her eyes were completely sinister, "why Yining... You will... Regret it!" Chapter 1432 Li Yunze''s mobile phone rang. He took it out, looked at it and answered, "Li Yunze." "Li Shao, it''s me, from Xingfeng network." A man''s voice came from the other side. "Yes." Li Yunze answered and said he knew. "I just received a report, that is..." On the phone, there was the voice of the people on the Xingfeng network. Li Yunze listened. Gradually, a cold hiss crossed his eyes. Qu Weiwei, since I have taken precautions against you, how much waves do you think you can turn in Los Angeles? But as a jewelry designer, without strong backstage support, no matter what way you start, you can''t get what you want. Li Yunze hung up the phone and his eyes became cold. Sure enough, people will lose their reason when they are crazy. "Ruin your future," Li Yunze snorted coldly, and his face slowly spilled a word with disgust, "stupid!" Time is spent in the surging wind and clouds. It seems calm, but everyone''s track is changing. Li Jinxi left the hospital and went home. After Chen Yu "disappeared" that day, he couldn''t be contacted and didn''t appear. Chu Zixiao finally woke up, and Jian Mo became Su Junli''s dry sister dramatically It seems to be developing on the good side, but whether Gu Beichen himself or Li Yunze, they know that they are not as calm as they appear. Li Yunze looked at Qi Fang who came to him and defeated all of him with just one word. "This is Huakang. I''m Li Yunze. Do you think it''s more reassuring to give your mother abroad or to me?" "As long as I say, can my mother''s illness and my current situation be cured?" Asked Qi Fang, gritting his teeth. Li Yunze smiled and said with a look of arrogance: "I''m Li Yunze, what do you think?" Qi Fang looked at Li Yunze. He felt itchy. He tried hard not to scratch, but he still didn''t. After Qu Weiwei''s phone couldn''t get through that day, he has been very upset. The next day, Qu Weiwei called him back and just asked him to bear it again. Immediately the matter was over, she began to see a doctor for him. However, it has been several days in a row. His situation became more and more serious. He didn''t even get through to his mother''s phone. He called Qu Weiwei again last night and asked about her mother. What he got was that if he didn''t cooperate with her well, he wouldn''t want to see her all his life. "OK, I''ll say everything..." Qi Fang gritted his teeth, "but I have another condition." "Say!" Li Yunze had no superfluous nonsense, or he roughly guessed what Qi Fang was going to say. "I can''t contact my mother. I don''t know what''s going on with her..." Qi Fang said, scratching his body uncontrollably. Li Yunze frowned slightly at his actions and called the nurse station, "send him first..." He gave the names of several drugs and hung up. "You mean your mother is under control?" Li Yunze asked. Qi Fang nodded. "I haven''t been able to contact my mother for two days." Li Yunze glanced a touch of irony at the bottom of his eyes, and then opened his mouth lightly: "I''ll give you the answer tomorrow at the latest." "Well, you give me the answer and I''ll give you all the evidence." Said Qi Fang. Li Yunze smiled. "Aren''t you afraid I''ll threaten you with your mother again?" "If Li Shao and Miss Qu were people at the same level, there would be no difference in status today." "You are a smart man, but you have done something not smart." Li Yunze felt sorry. "People always want to take the wrong way and want to take a shortcut," Qi Fang blushed. "But it''s always good to know the way back, isn''t it?!" Li Yunze looked at the line of sight with a trace of appreciation. He had ambition, thought and filial piety. Also because of filial piety and his mother''s illness, he polished most of his ambitions. ¡­¡­ Things have not settled, why should a heart always hang. "Why are you more worried than me?" Li Yunze looked at he Yining opposite and asked with a smile. He Yining looked up at Li Yunze and breathed a long sigh, "that''s because I know Qu Weiwei will hold back big moves, and then what if she can''t take precautions?" She doesn''t worry about herself at all. Qu Weiwei can''t buy murder, can she? Destroying Li Yunze not only made him hopeless, but also retaliated against her in an all-round way. This is the most painful. Qu Weiwei knows this very well. Li Yunze leaned forward slightly, raised his hand and stroked his frown. "I told you I would deal with it... Why don''t you trust me?" "No," he Yining shook his head. "Trust is one thing, but worry is another." In the face of people who care, even a subtle and infallible thing will not be less worried because of trust. This is a person''s instinctive feelings and thoughts. Li Yunze smiled slightly at the corners of his mouth, but that smile was as gentle as water. Turn around and look at the piano in the center of the restaurant. "Play you a song?!" Then Li Yunze got up and walked to the piano. In the rich and powerful families, like Li Yunze and Gu Beichen, there are few people who can achieve perfection in everything they want to do. When the current play sounded and Li Yunze looked sideways at he Yining, the corners of his mouth smiled a little bigger. He Yining was stunned at first, and then his mouth smiled. Because of joy, his eyes bent into crescent moon "Whispers in autumn", this is the only song she can play well, because at that time, the teacher told her that this is a romantic song suitable for confession. Look, even the piano teacher knows that she is chasing a boy named Li Yunze Li Yunze''s slender fingers are away from the upper reaches of the black-and-white key. From time to time, he looks at he Yining. The smile at the corners of his mouth always increases after each eye. Why do you rather hold your arms on the table, your hands on your cheeks, and look at Li Yunze with a look in your face. You are unconscious, "Li Yunze, you never know that I am happy, but my heart is wandering. I fear that everything is like the bubble of mermaid. When I am happiest and happiest, all of this will disappear." Li Yunze looked away at he Yining at the right time. Seeing that her lips were moving slightly, he motioned to her with a little doubt. Why Ning smiled and didn''t say anything. He just compared his heart to Li Yunze and added a beating action. My heart is beating for you! He Yining''s confession to Li Yunze has always been so direct without any concealment. Qu Weiwei stood by the flower bed outside the restaurant. Her eyes were cold. She didn''t need to act. Under the soft light, her face was full of happy two people. Her eyes seemed to tear their happiness. They were insidious! Chapter 1433 Qu Weiwei turned and got into the car again. She sat in the car and looked at the crowded street. She kept adjusting her breathing. After a while, she calmed down slightly, took her mobile phone and called the people on the fashion network. "When will the report be released?" "Since you want to hit immediately, it''s a good opportunity..." the other party said, "internal news, I heard that Li Yunze is about to set up a research report team on radioactive viruses. Don''t you think this time is the best?" "Radioactive virus research?" Qu Weiwei frowned. "Yes, it is estimated that the news will come out in the next two days." The other party smiled coldly, "if it''s released in the news, he should do a living experiment. Think about it, isn''t the news very explosive?" Qu Weiwei was silent and sneered at the corners of her mouth. Yes, whether true or false, the people will only be stunned. Coupled with the correction of Qi Fang, Li Yunze, even if the medical supervision commission protects you, can you really get out of your body without fail?! After Qu Weiwei hung up, the person of Xingfeng network sent a text message to Li Yunze: Li Shao, I''ve done as you ordered. As soon as Li Yunze reached the table, he saw the mobile phone screen flash, prompting the arrival of a text message. "Li Yunze, I really doubt that you used to have a crush on me, but I''m proud to say." Why Ning''s mouth smiled and his eyelashes gently fanned. "Yes, my soul and thoughts were separated at the beginning, so I didn''t feel that my soul actually loves you secretly." Li Yunze jokingly said. He Yining smiled happily, "I''ll go to the bathroom." "Yes." Li Yunze answered and waited until he Yining left before taking his mobile phone and reading the text message. A cold sneer crossed the corner of his mouth, and Li Yunze was completely disappointed. He gave Qu Weiwei a chance, but she didn''t want it. You are so dangerous that you force me to isolate you from Yining ¡­¡­ The next day, the weather in Los Angeles was slightly overcast, as if a wave of cold air was coming again. Qi Fang wrapped himself tightly and hurried to Li Yunze''s office with a mask and hat. "My mother found it?" The gasping voice was filled with anxiety. Li Yunze took the tablet, adjusted the video and handed it to Qi Fang, "Qi Fang, you never thought that your mother''s disease can be cured at home. Why does Qu Weiwei have to send it abroad?" "Domestic medical treatment is your power." Qi Fang said what he had thought and then frowned, "but now it seems that it''s just to control me." With that, he hurriedly took over the tablet and looked at the video above. "Mom, when I saw her face..." "The situation is not very optimistic," Li Yunze told the truth. "After being sent abroad, I haven''t received effective treatment..." he paused. "Let''s go, harm people''s heart, don''t have it." Qi Fang screwed his whole face together because of pain. He hugged his head and red eyes, looked at his increasingly haggard mother, and had the kind of heart to kill himself. "A special plane has been arranged to pick her up," said Li Yunze, who was not surprised that Qi Fang would be like this. "Throughout the whole process, your mother will receive treatment in Huakang. All medical expenses are free!" The last word fell, and Qi Fang''s eyes reddened. ¡­¡­ "According to the public relations person in charge of Huakang," on the news, the anchor broadcast real-time news, "with the acceleration of the pace of modern society, there is an increasing demand for all aspects, which also leads to..." Qu Weiwei looked straight at the TV. With the news broadcast by the news anchor, several scenes were changing on the small window next to her. "Huakang will officially set up a group of radiation Virus Research Association. The members of the group will select five doctors from major hospitals, and the rest will be selected from major hospitals..." the anchor has a generous and decent smile on his mouth. "This will lead to another breakthrough in in-depth research on Radiation Medicine in our country." "Breakthrough?" Qu Weiwei put a cold smile on one side of her mouth, "it will really be a ''breakthrough''..." Li Yunze uses living research, ha ha, what a "breakthrough" news it will be. "Dong Dong!" "Come in." Qu Weiwei tilted her head and saw Meng Yi come in. "The rest of the goods have been sold abroad." Meng Yi gave the list to Qu Weiwei. He looked at the TV and his eyes were deep. "Obsession is too deep." Qu Weiwei sneered, "aren''t you?" Meng Yi took back his eyes, "if you are like this, you are not afraid that all your efforts will be wasted?" "It depends on who dies first!" Qu Weiwei said coldly. Meng Yi quietly looks at Qu Weiwei''s appearance. After sighing "pity", he turns around and wants to leave. Just as he was about to open the glass door, Meng Yi glanced back. "Whatever you do, you should consider the consequences for your behavior..." he looked back. "If you want to destroy them, maybe I will finish it for you." Qu Weiwei looks at Meng Yi. Before she understands what he''s talking about, she sees him open the door and leave. Time, little by little. Every minute, every second, for Qu Weiwei, is suffering. The people in the studio left one by one, and the sky began to get gray Qu Weiwei took out her mobile phone and dialed Li Yunze. She hoped that with the last chip, Li Yunze would "change her mind". "Yunze, as long as you leave, why should you rather..." Qu Weiwei said, "I can stop everything." Li Yunze flashed cold hiss at the corner of his mouth, "Qu Weiwei, as long as you tell us what happened in those years, from then on, our affairs will be written off and everyone will live their own lives." "It seems that you are going to fight to the end?" "Qu Weiwei, this is the last exchange condition..." Li Yunze''s eyes became cold. "If you don''t cherish this last opportunity, I can only help Yining pull out the time bomb around you." "Then let''s see who gives who a chance!" Qu Weiwei has a sneer on her face, but she has pain she will never get. Such two extreme emotions come together, which makes people only feel sad. Qu Weiwei hung up the phone slowly. She looked at the falling leaves outside without blinking, as if she were shrouded in darkness. Tears, spilling over the eyes without prevention. It burns the skin and burns the soul. Qu Weiwei cried and smiled. It is a sad tear, but it smiles like a devil Slowly drooping her eyes, Qu Weiwei dialed the phone of Xingfeng network, "the news has come out. You can put the news." "It''s already started. Tomorrow," said the voice, "you must remember to watch the news the first time." The salty and astringent tears fainted at the corners of her mouth. Qu Weiwei sneered and hung up the phone "He Yining, I''ll make you miserable!" The devil''s voice echoed in the empty studio. At this moment, Qu Weiwei never thought that she was really in pain! Chapter 1434 Time, especially long in waiting. But whether you are suffering from time or not, it will always run on its own track and give you all kinds of emotions in the alternation of day and night. A new day in Los Angeles was blown to the boil by a news. While Qu Weiwei is waiting for the news of the whole country and even the world to go crazy because of Li Yunze''s "great" deeds The newly released morning news caused her an unresponsive blow. "New jewelry designer Vivian is suspected of using excessive radioactive jewelry as high-grade jewelry..." "According to the disclosure, Vivian''s success is mostly to frame rich businessmen. Since then, she has received a large number of orders to improve her popularity..." "Vivian is suspected of intentional injury. The jewelry Association has submitted the case to the police. After waiting for verification, it will be a legal sanction to meet her!" "Vivian..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The overwhelming news fell one after another like snow flakes, which made people talk in surprise. "Hello, I heard you are a worker under Vivian. Can you tell me if the source of her jewelry is black market, which is why you are like this?" "Can you tell me about your condition?" "Hello, is it Vivian who deliberately made you like this to play any role?" "I don''t know if those jewels came from the black market," Qi Fang said. "But I''m like this now. I don''t have to say anything. Everyone should be able to see it. Poor me. I still have a seriously ill mother to take care of. I''m like this now..." Qi Fang wanted to talk and stopped, and his face was completely sad. "I work hard every day. I want to live a good life and treat my mother." Qi Fang took a deep breath, "Vivian didn''t let me say anything after seeing me like this. She gave me 100000 yuan for treatment, but she didn''t let me go to a good hospital for treatment..." There was an uproar in the media. "Maybe God looked at me pitifully and let me meet a noble man." Hope flashed from the bottom of his eyes, "Li Shaozhen is worthy of being the great God of China''s medical circles. When he saw my situation, he not only wanted to treat me, but also thought that many front-line jewelry processing workers might be hurt, and set up a radiation research group..." Qi Fang''s expression of true feelings moved the media and the audience. Qu Weiwei breathed and couldn''t believe such a god reversal plot. "Qi Fang, don''t you want your mother''s life?" Qu Weiwei suddenly stood up, stared and watched the media interview on TV. Qi Fang also watched it on TV at the right time, as if, just like perception, the two people''s eyes were "right" together. The world is always a cycle of cause and effect. Qu Weiwei is good at playing weak to arouse others'' subconscious compassion for the weak. At the moment, Qi Fang uses the same means because of her irresponsible behavior to him. Karma is never unrequited. It''s just that it''s not time. News fermentation is manipulated and guided by individual media Soon, Qu Weiwei became a rat crossing the street, and Li Yunze''s "doctor''s benevolence" received more praise in contrast. Meng Yi is cutting the apple while watching TV. "Stupid!" Meng Yi said coldly, his eyes gradually darkened, thinking about how to not peel himself from the jewelry, but also not let himself be found to be a person who has supported Qu Weiwei for so many years. At the moment, Meng Yi hopes Qu Weiwei won''t lose her head. She doesn''t know what she should do now?! ¡­¡­ "Ha ha, please allow me to laugh three thousand times!" Yanmiao raised his hand forthrightly and exaggerated, and laughed toward the Los Angeles River, "bitch has its own harvest!" With that, she looked back at he Yining, "Yining, really, I''m so cool!" Why would you rather sit on the steps with your hands on both sides of your body and ask, "Yan Yan, why do you have to live so sharply?" "Because she''s not in the right mood." Yanmiao went to he Yining and sat down. "Everyone has vanity and jealousy, but few people will turn these bad emotions into hatred like Qu Weiwei." Why Ning''s eyes fell on the fishing fire on the Los Angeles River and sighed. "What are you doing? Are you still sorry for her?" Yanmiao couldn''t stand turning his eyes. "No," he Yining shook his head, looked at yanmiao and said seriously, "I think I was blind when I was a child and deserved to be cheated by her." Yan Miao was stunned at first, and then he Yining and he Yining looked at each other and smiled. Two women were playing by the Los Angeles River. He Yining almost predicted Qu Weiwei''s next ending. He didn''t regret it, but only relieved her hatred. She is not the virgin, she is also selfish. She wanted to be with Li Yunze without hindrance, but she never had the idea of stepping on others. Qu Weiwei is today. She is entirely to blame. ¡­¡­ The next day, the jewelry Association took the lead in intervening, and the police then intervened. After investigating Qu Weiwei''s incident, everyone in the studio was investigated and flustered one by one. "I thought there was a way out with a famous designer. I was really killed." "Yes, I heard later that Vivian went out of the studio, so it''s hard to find a job..." People in the studio looked at Qu Weiwei, who was taken away by the police, and complained angrily. Qu Weiwei''s face was as gray as death, and her whole person had no glory of the past. Li Yunze leaned on the car with his hands in his pockets. His original slightly drooping vision slowly lifted up when Qu Weiwei was taken out Qu Weiwei smiled at Li Yunze''s sight, even if it was ugly. "Li Shao!" "Officer Wang, can you have a word with her?" Officer Wang looked back at Qu Weiwei and said, "don''t delay too long." Li Yunze nodded and looked at Qu Weiwei. "What can we talk about?" Qu Weiwei sneered, "Li Yunze, I didn''t expect you to be so cruel!" "It''s not as good as you." Li Yunze paused, "Qu Weiwei, what happened to Xia Xiao at the beginning was driven by you?!" Before Qu Weiwei answered, Li Yunze said slowly, "Qu Weiwei, Yining and I can''t be together until now. I should ''thank'' you... Not you. I''m afraid Yining and I don''t need to take so many detours." "Yes," Qu Weiwei smiled coldly, "you say you are so smart, why are you blind?" "Well scolded." Li Yunze was not angry, "but I want to thank you." Qu Weiwei wrung her eyebrows. Obviously, she didn''t expect Li Yunze to react like this. "Because you let me take so many detours," Li Yunze said quietly looking at Qu Weiwei and waiting for her to change her face, "so now I especially cherish everything about heyining..." The words fell, and Qu Weiwei changed her face as expected. Li Yunze smiled clearly and softly, but it made people feel very cold. "You''d better pray that I find what happened earlier, otherwise, I''m afraid you''ll have to sit through the bottom of this prison... After all, I don''t want to put a time bomb beside me!" Qu Weiwei''s body trembled slightly because she endured the anger in her body "By the way, was yesterday''s performance wonderful?" Li Yunze continued to smile, "do you think you are very familiar? Just like... What you did in front of me?!" "Li, Yun, Ze!" Qu Weiwei gnashed her teeth and roared, "you''ll die..." Chapter 1435 Li Yunze looked at Qu Weiwei faintly, but said coldly in his voice: "at this moment, you still don''t know how to repent..." he had the helplessness of abandoning at the bottom of his eyes. "Qu Weiwei, people, being too persistent is not their own, and will only push themselves into the abyss." Qu Weiwei was successfully aroused by Li Yunze. She suddenly wanted to rush up, but she was quickly pulled forward by the policewoman not far away "Ah..." Qu Weiwei''s throat roared, and her eyes were full of anger and hatred that would never go away. She looked at Li Yunze fiercely, looked at his lofty appearance, looked at his disgust She suddenly looked up and smiled. After laughing for a long time, Qu Weiwei took back her eyes, gnashing her teeth with complex emotions, and slowly said word by word: "Li Yunze, I wish you and he Yining will never be together." Li Yunze frowned slightly, and was obviously more tired of Qu Weiwei''s ability to show off her tongue at this moment. "I wish you..." Qu Weiwei''s voice was as cold as if it came out of hell, "... I wish you either separation or... Farewell!" Li Yunze smiled angrily. "If everyone''s wishes can come true, what else does the world need to work hard for?" Li Yunze said faintly, "everyone can make a wish! For example... I wish you a broken wish, how about it?" Qu Weiwei was taken away by the policewoman. They didn''t know what Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei talked about before, but now they also know one thing. Qu Weiwei offended Li Yunze In Los Angeles, this domestic city, whether economic or political, is the center of the center. The network of people above is complex. And in this network, it belongs to the rumored four young people in Los Angeles. Gu Beichen''s commercial empire "emperor group", the economic lifeline of Long Xiao "Yadong bank", Lin Nanjia''s military and political affairs, and... Li Jia''s medical status. From people''s livelihood to economy to military administration... Offend them. Although they can''t cover up their wrongdoing against you, often, those who offend them will come to no good end. The police car brushed Li Yunze''s side. Li Yunze and Qu Weiwei looked through the window of the police car Qu Weiwei flashed a shallow smile around her mouth. When the car missed Li Yunze, she slowly took back her eyes and fell in front of her, becoming cold and bloodthirsty. Li Yunze, I really want to know what Meng Yi wants from you after all these years of use? Qu Weiwei''s smile deepened and her sight became dim. But I know what he wants must be very important Maybe something that will make you miserable. After all, he said he would finish it for her and destroy them... Didn''t he?! The police car left outside Vivian''s studio. Because the media received some news, they just took a few photos of Qu Weiwei being taken away. There was no figure of Li Yunze in everyone''s picture. Luo Xiaomi was just when everyone left. After Li Yunze got on the bus, he opened the door flexibly and got on the back seat. Li Yunze frowned and looked back, "Xiaomi?!" "Hey, Hello, uncle Ze!" Luo Xiaomi grinned and waved his hands with a treacherous face. Li Yunze supported the steering wheel with one arm. "Want news?" "Mm-hmm!" Luo Xiaomi immediately nodded like a chicken pecking rice, and the corners of his mouth were almost to the root of his ear. Li Yunze pulled the corners of his mouth and smiled at the child of Gu Beichen''s third sister. When Luo Xiaomi felt something, he coldly threw out two words, "no!" "Don''t introduce..." Luo Xiaomi immediately broke his shoulder. "Uncle Ze, look at me. It''s hard to keep up with the news... Just for my poor sake, burst some materials that others don''t have." Li Yunze took back his sight and started the car. "You can''t send it out if it explodes." "Then meet my own selfish desires..." Luo Xiaomi said and didn''t forget to explain, "I don''t go back to the company. I want an interview with the film and television city." "..." Li Yunze was a little embarrassed. "Xiaomi, do you want to use your time on the road to rub elbows with me?" "Is it polite for you, uncle size?" Luo Xiaomi immediately fought back. Li Yunze smiled happily. He is in a good mood at the moment. In addition, Luo Xiaomi is just a strange family. Beichen likes it. He naturally likes uncle Ze, who grew up watching Luo Xiaomi. "Tell me about you. Don''t use good resources. If you have to be a paparazzi, you owe it to the third sister." Li Yunze said, "but didn''t you say that you would dig your own gossip without going through the back door?" "Uncle Ze..." Luo Xiaomi suddenly changed his painting style and shrunk his mouth. "Look at how pathetic I am. I''m starving without a bonus. Can you bear it?" "It''s inconvenient to drive!" Li Yunze answered calmly, "besides, if you''re starving to death, the third sister wants you to go home quickly." "..." Luo Xiaomi twitched at the corners of his mouth and leaned angrily against the seat. "It''s not cute not to go in with the oil and salt learned by his little uncle." After a pause, she changed into a cute and flattering look, "Uncle Ze... Uncle Ze..." "It''s no use calling brother this time." "Isn''t it?!" Luo Xiaomi frowned, "so cruel?" Li Yunze nodded with a smile at the corners of his mouth and allowed Luo Xiaomi to use all his 18 martial arts. Everyone had arrived at the film and television city and didn''t pry into valuable news. "Uncle Ze, I''m really angry!" Luo Xiaomi said gnashing his teeth. "Please have a big meal to calm down," Li Yunze looked back at Luo Xiaomi, "how about it?" Luo Xiaomi immediately raised his eyebrows. "I''m very generous. It takes at least three meals to eliminate it." Anyway, there is no news. It''s necessary to rip off! Li Yunze smiled, "OK, you set the location, you set the personnel, and I''ll pay." "Hey, it''s almost..." Luo Xiaomi and Li Yunze waved their hands, said goodbye, got off and entered the film and television city. Looking at Luo Xiaomi''s youthful appearance, Li Yunze suddenly thought of one by one. "The third sister dotes on Xiaomi and is so angry that her teeth itch," Li Yunze murmured as he looked at Luo Xiaomi''s back. "I don''t know if it will make me helpless in the future." Speaking of this, Li Yunze picked up his eyebrows and smiled. The overflow look on his face was that, no matter what, he was controlled by her. Taking back his sight, Li Yunze dialed he Yining. "I saw the news..." he Yining''s voice was a little dignified. "She, how long will this matter be sentenced?" Li Yunze pondered and said without concealment: "normally, it''s three or five years, not normal... It''s hard to say." After a pause, Li Yunze looked ahead and asked, "Yining, will you be soft hearted?" "Huh?" He Yining didn''t react for a moment. Li Yunze''s eyes were deep, "if it was an abnormal judgment, would you sympathize with Qu Weiwei?" Chapter 1436 "Li Yunze..." why would you rather hang your eyes? "If I said no, would you think I was impure?" Li Yunze smiled. "If you say sympathy, I guess I have to brainwash you. It''s really not good. I can also try to change your brain." "Li Yunze!" Why rather gnash your teeth and shout. Li Yunze gradually restrained his smile and said slowly, "Yining, this society is cannibal. We can be kind-hearted and don''t take the initiative to harm others, but we can''t let others eat, okay?!" "Yes." Why should I rather answer, pause, or ask, "will this matter really be judged for a long time?" "It won''t be so obvious." Li Yunze said. Although the law can directly make Qu Weiwei irreparable, this is the world. People always sympathize with the weak. Such a judgment will make a large number of people feel sorry and flood their compassion at the same time. He doesn''t need to leave Qu Weiwei with such a way back. After being imprisoned, when he didn''t find out what was going on in that year, he naturally had a way to keep Qu Weiwei from getting out. "Go to work well and pick you up after work, huh?" Li Yunze said with a smile, "of course, without special surgery." Why did Ning zhe smile? She likes Li Yunze''s little humor. "OK." When Li Yunze hung up the phone, he looked at the city again. His eyes were deep. Li Yunze suddenly wanted to see one by one, so he started the car, went back to the apartment and got the gifts prepared for one by one before driving to Spencer ¡­¡­ "Fingering is like this... Yes... Be careful, Yao is very smart..." In the classroom, the sound of Violin Practice came. It sounded like a beginner playing. In fact, it was a little harsh. Li Yunze looked inside through the observation window on the door of the classroom and saw that he was seriously following the teacher. Spencer is an aristocratic school. The study here is also very humanized. According to the children''s interests and orientation, in addition to culture, there will be many small interest classes. The number of people in each small class is small in order to achieve the best effect. There are only five children in this violin class. They are all beginners. Looking at the serious appearance one by one, Li Yunze''s mind is completely what he Ning looked like when he was a child. "One by one, don''t learn to be better..." Li Yunze whispered softly, "it''s too hard to chase someone. It should be done by boys, okay?" As he spoke, Li Yunze raised his eyebrows slightly, and his eyes were full of the proud feeling that "my daughter is so excellent and beautiful. How can the stars and the moon make boys chase after her?". But on second thought, Jian Jie, whose IQ completely inherited Beichen and Jian Mo, wouldn''t it be very miserable if he couldn''t be proud in front of him one by one?! no way! Li Yunze thought that she should instill it well. She is a complete little princess and absolutely has the thought of being proud and charming After violin class, the other four children felt some pain because their fingers were grinding on the strings. As soon as they heard the bell, they wanted to leave the classroom with joy. Only one by one, but also seriously practice the questions just said by the teacher. Li Yunze smiled lovingly at the corners of his mouth. The feeling of blood connection made him feel wonderful and unspeakable as a doctor who spoke with scholarship and theory all day. "Eh," one by one, when the teacher asked her to have a rest and practice again in the next class, he found Li Yunze at the door, "that Uncle..." Li Yunze smiled and nodded one by one. I don''t know why. At this moment, it''s like hearing Yining call him "Li Yunze". He actually feels kind. One by one, he was a little coy and wanted to be close to Li Yunze. After all, he received a lot of gifts from his uncle every week. However, she is a little stuffy. Because this uncle obviously wants to be with his mother, but he is with other women "Did you come to see me?" After struggling for a long time, he finally asked awkwardly. Li Yunze nodded and walked forward, "because there are too many things, I can''t come to pick you up with my mother every time. I''ll come and see you when I''m free today." 11. I was a little happy in my heart. Obviously, my eyes were bent, but I deliberately pretended not to care. That little expression, let alone how vivid. "You broke your promise. Don''t think I''ll forgive you if you come to see me today!" Wrinkled his little nose one by one. Li Yunze nodded, "I know, so I also brought a gift to make amends." "Gift?" One by one''s eyes lit up. Children are children in the end. Their world is very simple. It''s just a flattery. They can happily forget all the bad things Li Yunze poked out his big palm, slightly picked his chin and motioned. Although he was still a little coy, he handed his little hand to Li Yunze. The small, soft hand was held in the palm. The wonderful feeling made Li Yunze''s mouth unconsciously raise a gratifying smile. Different from the feeling of how to hold your hand, it''s an electric current passing through your heart Holding one by one''s hand, Li Yunze felt that it was a kind of intimate sense of happiness. One by one, as Li Yunze walked, his small face looked up at him from time to time. He seemed to feel the same. When he looked over one by one, he would look at her Father and daughter looked at each other. At that moment, the beautiful feeling not only warmed Li Yunze''s heart, but also played a big ripple in one-to-one''s heart. Li Yunze took them to the reception room one by one. There was a rectangular box on the table over there. "Open it!" Li Yunze pushed the gifts one by one. One by one knelt down in the chair, fanned his eyes, looked at Li Yunze, and then leaned out his little hand to open the box When I saw a violin inside, my eyes lit up, "how do you know I want a violin of my own?" Asked, one by one suddenly raised his eyes. In his big eyes, he looked at Li Yunze with surprise. Li Yunze rubbed his little head one by one and then pressed it to his chest, "feel it with your heart." One by one, the smile from the corners of the mouth is bigger. Take out the violin and touch it one by one. Such joy belongs to the child without any disguise. "Eh, there are words!" One by one, I saw a few small words engraved on the back of the violin''s handshake, and hesitated to read, "what''s in my heart?" "The only one in my heart!" Look at his mother slowly, and the only meaning is that he doesn''t know me one by one...... " The only lover, the only little lover! In this way, let one by one feel very happy. That kind of happiness is different from the happiness uncle Si gave her. It seems that I feel so warm and warm. One by one, she lowered her eyes again and looked at the line, "the only..." she smiled happily and whispered, and then looked at the smaller words at the bottom, "um... BB, Ze!" One by one, he looked up at Li Yunze, "I know this Ze. It''s in your name. There''s a child in our class who also has this word in his name." After a pause, he tilted his head one by one, blinked at Li Yunze and asked, "but what does this BB mean?" Chapter 1437 Li Yunze quietly looked at them one by one. After watching them for several seconds, he slowly opened his mouth: "this is a problem to be explored. Look back and wait for you to find it by yourself, okay?" One by one, he nodded with light in his eyes, "well, good!" She likes such exploration and surprise, which always makes her feel happier than telling her directly. Xiao Jie said that sometimes his thirst for knowledge will make the answers he gets deeper into his heart, which can''t be given by others. "Little Ze" gently rubbed her body, and then touched her four fingers one by one. "If you have time in the future, will you often come to see me?" One eye is full of expectation, "I will be in school recently because I have to practice the violin." Li Yunze was a little surprised and made such efforts one by one. "Don''t you go home on weekends?" Shaking his head one by one, his little face was red and his voice was uncontrollably nervous. "I want to master the foundation quickly, and then I can practice a song first. When the new year''s Eve party this year, I can perform with Xiao Jie." Li Yunze''s heart is a little pumping. He doesn''t want to attack his daughter''s enthusiasm, but he doesn''t want his daughter''s efforts because of Jian Jie! "And oh," said one by one happily, "Xiao Jie said that I hope I can perform with him at the kindergarten graduation ceremony. He said that the violin is a very elegant instrument. I look forward to standing next to his piano like the little princess and playing the graduation repertoire with him..." Li Yunze listened quietly and said there one by one, with mixed feelings in his heart. I also hope that one by one can do this. I work hard because of hope and fear that she will become the second. Why should I rather. Li Yunze took he Yining''s hand and walked along the river of Los Angeles. His mind was running how to get rid of Jian Jie''s "Curse" one by one At the beginning of the Lantern Festival, the orange street lights on the road were hazy, pulling the figures of the two people long under the whirling shadow of trees without any leaves. "What are you thinking?" Why should Ning look at Li Yunze. Li Yunze stopped and turned to he Yining. "I''m thinking, if the years can come back, I won''t let you work so hard." Then Li Yunze took Ning into his arms, gently rubbed her chin against the top of her hair, and sniffed her breath between her nose. That kind of satisfaction is not what parents or brothers and sisters can give. "I''m lucky and happy..." why should I rather surround Li Yunze''s waist with satisfaction, "because my efforts have been rewarded to the greatest extent." In this world, many people are working hard, but not everyone''s efforts will pay off, right?! Li Yunze let go of he Yining, took her hand with both hands and kissed her on the forehead, "Yining, I want to hold your hand and go on... All my life!" Why Ning smiled, "Li Yunze, you can''t go back on what you said." Li Yunze looked at he Yining''s sight more and more deeply. When he Yining was overwhelmed by him, he saw him speak slowly, his voice was full of charm under the night, and said: "this heart takes kissing as a mirror!" He Yining''s eyes have just crossed the hazy mood, and his lips have been wrapped by Li Yunze Deeply, the sentimental kiss is not overbearing. There is only the deepest affection in my heart and the endless love. At this moment, by the Los Angeles River, the two people who were obsessed and kissed couldn''t think of it. All this was so beautiful that God was jealous. ¡­¡­ Li Jinxi stood in front of the villa window, his eyes lost their former glory, looked outside, and gradually lost the focus. "Have some soup, miss?" Aunt Qiao put the stewed soup on the table and sighed, "Miss, you''re not well yet. Don''t always stand." "I see, aunt Qiao." Li Jinxi pulled the corners of her mouth and smiled a little ugly, but she tried to smile. She is strong and doesn''t want people who care about her to worry. Her eldest brother once told her that she can''t let anything knock her down and told her that she must stick to anything. So, even if the pain, she is also trying to smile. There''s no taste in my mouth. It''s delicious soup. When I drink it, it''s like drinking Coptis water. Li Jinxi clenched her gums, swallowed it secretly, and pressed down the uncontrollable grief. One mouthful, one mouthful of soup, Li Jinxi forced himself to finish it. "Aunt Qiao, I''ll go up and have a rest first..." Li Jinxi got up and went upstairs, because her steps were a little urgent, and she didn''t even find Li Jiyuan who just came out of the bedroom. "Oh..." "Well, vomit... Vomit..." Li Jinxi lay on the toilet and vomited out the soup she had just drunk. She looked at herself in the mirror and laughed at herself. "Li Jinxi, can''t you live without love?" She stared at her red blood eyes because of vomiting, looked at herself and asked, "without Chen Yu, are you going to die? Ah?!" The sound of "bang" came. The bottle of make-up water hit the mirror and split around from where it was hit in an instant, making Li Jinxi unable to see the face he felt he hated. Li Jinxi limped down powerlessly, and tears poured out of his eyes uncontrollably. In my mind, it was all the scene of Li Yunhao committing suicide in front of me "Yunze, Jinxi, I''m sorry... My brother really can''t hold on... He can finally be free..." "Don''t, don''t... brother, don''t..." Li Jinxi was completely afraid. She shrank back in horror until she reached the corner and curled herself into a ball. Li Yunhao''s last voice echoed in his ears. Li Jinxi covered his ears with both hands and shook his head, trying to get rid of the voice in his mind. But no matter how she resisted, the voice shrouded her like a magic spell "Brother, I''m sorry, I''m sorry..." Jin Xi cried, choking and murmuring, "I know I''m wrong, I know I shouldn''t be with Chen Yu, I''m wrong, I''m wrong..." Li Jinxi kept torturing herself. She thought she had been able to face Li Yunhao''s suicide in the past so many years, but they were all fake. When my mother left, my brother committed suicide in front of me. The blood was so dazzling Under such circumstances, his relatives committed suicide in front of him. Such pain... Li Jinxi couldn''t put it down at all! At that moment, Li Jiyuan seemed to hear a noise from Li Jinxi''s room, but it was only faint. He didn''t know if he had heard it wrong? "What''s the matter, sir?" Aunt Qiao came up and saw Li Jiyuan standing at the door of Li Jinxi. She didn''t know why. "Ah Qiao, do you think there''s anything wrong with Jinxi coming back these days?" Aunt Qiao thought, "in addition to a lot of silence, she is still very strong." She heaved a sigh. "It''s inevitable that the child is gone and the young lady is in a bad mood." Li Jiyuan nodded without saying more. Aunt Qiao didn''t know about Chen Yu. Everyone had a tacit understanding and didn''t say it. But Li Jiyuan knew that the death of his eldest son was a deep injury to Jinxi and Yunze. His pain is the loss of his wife and excellent son, and the pain of Jinxi and Yunze is not only the loss of his brother, but also the cruelty of suicide in front of them. Li Jiyuan didn''t trust Li Jinxi. He was afraid that her silence these days would lead to greater psychological pain. He wanted to go in and see his daughter and have a chat. Knock on the door and no one answers. Li Jiyuan frowned slightly, worried a little, thought a little, said "Dad came in" and pushed the door open Chapter 1438 Li Jiyuan opened the door. He didn''t go in. He just stood at the door of the bedroom. After looking around, he fell in the direction of the bathroom. There was a faint light coming from there, but there was no noise. With a slight frown, Li Jiyuan walked over, "Jinxi?!" No one answered. Li Jiyuan''s worry just deepened a little, "Jinxi, are you in there?" Speaking, Li Jiyuan raised his hand to knock on the bathroom door The door of the bathroom was suddenly pulled open, and then Li Jin Xi was applying the mask, or the one who covered his eyes, and groped out. "Dad?" Li Jinxi asked, "what''s the matter?" "Oh, it''s all right..." Li Jiyuan examined Li Jinxi. "I''m going to take students into the mountain tomorrow to identify common wild herbs. Do you have any gadgets you want? I''ll bring them back by the way." Li Jinxi put his hands over his face and didn''t allow himself to apply the mask because his expression was too rich. "Dad, what do you think I was when I was young? Every time you go into the mountains and gather medicine, I want you to bring something new." Li Jiyuan smiled. "At that time, I thought you were interested in many herbs you hadn''t seen before, and thought you would take the route of traditional Chinese Medicine..." he sighed, "but in the end, you were completely out of touch with medicine." "I guess I was too curious when I was a child, and I didn''t feel it later." Li Jinxi said in a relaxed voice. Li Jiyuan guided Li Jinxi to sit down in front of the dressing table. "Then you can have a good rest at home. You can''t go out recently. What''s the matter? Let the people of the company come. Don''t waste your body, you know?" "Dad, don''t worry." Li Jinxi said quietly. Li Jiyuan wanted to say something else, but he endured it. He didn''t say it in the end. He just sighed and said, "go to bed early after skin care, huh?" Li Jinxi nodded, "good night, Dad!" "Well, good night!" After Li Jiyuan stared at Li Jinxi deeply, he turned and left her bedroom. Just as the door softly rang, Li Jinxi''s eyelids moved gently down, and the mask paper slipped on his eyes. Looking at the scarlet eyes in the mirror, and the face that was "pale" because of the mask paper, Li Jinxi dismounted the camouflage just now, and his body was trembling without control. She doesn''t want to pretend like this, but she doesn''t know how to face the collapse when there is no one. She just doesn''t want her father and Yunze to worry and be afraid, because in this way, Yunze will be immersed in the past Li Jinxi was unable to tear off the mask paper, and even had no strength to wash his face and skin. Lying on the dressing table, she kept crossing the pictures of Chen Juen''s love and Li Yunhao''s fall in a pool of blood. Two extreme emotions tore her, making her whole body seem to be hollowed out. ¡­¡­ Chen Yu tried to dial Li Jinxi''s phone, but unfortunately, he still couldn''t dial it out. He casually threw his mobile phone onto the table and paced back and forth impatiently. Suddenly, he stopped and saw the front. Chen Zhaobai came over with a cold step in indifference "Brother Zhao!" People nearby saluted respectfully. Chen Zhaobai walked to Chen Yu without squinting. "I''ll arrange for you to leave." Chen Yu frowned at Chen Zhaobai. He didn''t know why. He always felt that the successor of the Chen family felt a little strange when he came back this time. "Why, don''t you want to go?" Chen Zhaobai''s voice was colder. "If so, it''s better to stay in the Chen family all the time." Chen Xuan frowned, "brother, I won''t stay." Paused, "although it''s a little irresponsible, I don''t think so. Even, I think you should wash it slowly." Chen Zhaobai leaned over and looked at the early morning sunshine, full of hope, but for him, there was no color at all. "Wash white?" Chen Zhaobai sneered, "the Chen family has been involved in the underworld for so many years, there are only two ways to go." Chen Xuan''s eyebrows tightened even tighter. "Either, be surrounded and suppressed by the police. Or..." Chen Zhaobai sneered and slowly said the following words, "... Be eaten by the black." The world is not fair, but many times, it is also fair. If you enjoy the desire brought by money, you have to bear the swallowing of the bottomless black hole brought by money. No one can escape the reincarnation of fate, no one... Can! Chen Xuan looked at Chen Zhaobai quietly. His eyes were full of strange emotions. At this moment, he felt that his eldest brother wanted the destruction of the Chen family very much?! He must be crazy to have such an idea! Chen Zhaobai astringed his breath. "An hour later, a car will take you to the airport..." turning his head, he looked at Chen Yu deeply. "Since it''s white, don''t wander in the dark. Gray areas... Often have a worse ending than black!" After his words, Chen Zhaobai turned around without waiting for Chen Yu to aftertaste his words. Just as when he came, he left with a indifferent step, leaving Chen Yu with a thoughtful figure ¡­¡­ Li Yunze was woken up by Li Jiyuan''s phone early in the morning. He subconsciously looked around first. No one was there. Slightly frowned, Li Yunze rubbed the center of his eyebrows, took his mobile phone and answered, "Dad!" "I''ll take the students up the mountain later," Li Jiyuan said. "I''m not sure, Jinxi. If you don''t have anything to do these two days, you''ll come back to live." "Well, I see." Li Yunze answered. Li Jiyuan was silent and finally turned into a deep sigh, "OK, I''ll hang up." "Dad, be safe." "Yes." Li Ze was lying on the phone, his eyes were a little lax. At the moment, his mind is a little blank. He doesn''t know what he''s thinking. He seems to think too much, so that he doesn''t have any clue There was a sudden sound outside, which suddenly startled Li Yunze''s thoughts. After a little cleverness, he quickly opened the quilt, got out of bed and ran out He Yining kept a slight lift of his hand and looked at the plate split in two on the ground with some guilt on his face. Lifting her eyes, she was "pitiful", but the bottom of her eyes flashed a sly look at Li Yunze, and asked with a smile in her mouth, "are you satisfied with this way of calling the bed?" "Call the bed?" Li Yunze''s eyes suddenly became deep. "What do you think of, Li Ning''s eyes suddenly came towards her?" Li Yunze picked up the split plate and put it aside. Then he looked at him with a smile and asked, "what do I think?" "I said wake you up..." "Really?" Li Yunze slightly bullied him. He Yining spoke slowly in a provocative voice: "the way to call the bed..." his eyes gradually deepened, "I prefer when you are under me..." Chapter 1439 "Teng" for a moment, why Ning''s face turned red to the root of his ears. "I knew..." why would you rather gnash your teeth? "Your brain is full of colored things." Li Yunze pecked at why Ning''s mouth, smiled at her red face, raised his eyebrow and asked, "early in the morning, are you going to tear down my kitchen?" "I have no destructive power." He Yining put his arms around Li Yunze''s waist and said with a grin, "I just make you breakfast." Li Yunze''s eyes deepened, held he Yining''s face and said, "don''t make breakfast for me. I don''t want you to work so hard, okay?" "It doesn''t matter. I''ve been used to taking care of one by one in recent years..." he Yining said dismissively. "Don''t you think it''s a very happy and romantic thing to make breakfast for your beloved?" At this moment, Li Yunze didn''t feel happy and romantic. In his heart, he was replaced by full heartache. His silly rather, from can''t cook to can cook, from rich family daughter, to just an ordinary person, she accepts herself in each period and never complains about herself Li Yunze gently hugged he Yining into his arms and smiled at the corners of his mouth. I remember before, Jin Xi read a cartoon and had to let him see a sentence from the man to the woman Then, if he and Yining were replaced, it would be like this: he didn''t like he Yining, but he was he Yining in his whole youth. Li Yunze smiled at the corners of his mouth. The female owner of the cartoon also chased the male owner for more than ten years. Finally... They were together. Life can be combined with beautiful comics, which can be expressed by more than happiness and romance?! "I''ll go back to the villa these days," Li Yunze let go of he Yining. "Dad took the students to recognize Chinese herbal medicine. I''m not sure Jinxi is at home." He Yining nodded. "I''m just reviewing. I''m going to take the licensing exam next week." "Yes." Li Yunze answered. Why Ning drooped his eyes and asked, "Yunze, Jinxi, you..." She stopped talking and didn''t know how to ask. She was afraid that Li Yunze would be hurt again, even if she was for the purpose of caring. Even if... It''s possible that Li Yunze''s heart is pressed on this matter, and no one can talk about it and can''t relieve it. Li Yunze looked at he Yining with burning eyes. After a few seconds, what emotion in the fundus of his eyes cracked. "Yining, if I tell you I put it down, it''s a lie." Li Yunze didn''t want to deceive he Yining. "It seems that I can forgive, in fact, I will never forgive anyone related to eldest brother''s suicide." Why Ning Zhe''s mouth? She can understand Li Yunze''s idea. The relatives of the original favored son of heaven, who were destroyed by their will, still committed suicide in front of them after such cruel destruction. No one can accept and forgive "Na Jinxi and Chen Yu..." "I don''t forgive, but I hope Jinxi can be happy." Li Yunze''s voice showed a trace of sadness under forbearance. "If Jinxi can accept Chen Yu, I won''t object." "But you will suffer, won''t you?" He Yining saw through Li Yunze at a glance, just because he knew too much, "but you won''t show it. Even, if Jinxi accepted Chen Yu, you will force yourself not to think. Everything makes everyone invisible." Speaking of this, why should I rather feel sorry for Li Yunze. "Li Yunze, if you feel uncomfortable in the future, you can tell me..." why Ning zhe said at the corner of his mouth, "if someone shares, the sadness will be halved, and then face it together. Happiness and strength will be multiplied by two, so that you won''t be so sad and uncomfortable." Li Yunze smiled, his index finger and middle finger were slightly close together, and he Yining tapped on his forehead. "Little woman''s careful thinking..." paused, "I''ll wash it, and you continue to prepare a happy and romantic breakfast." Why Ning zhe nodded with a smile and watched Li Yunze turn around with a slight sigh across his eyes. Men always bear a lot, hoping to support a day for women, but they don''t know that women can sometimes become his dependence when he is vulnerable. He Yining turned around and continued to go to the kitchen to prepare breakfast But the thought of Li Yunhao''s death and the blow and injury to Li Yunze choked in my mind. ¡­¡­ Two days later, Chen Yu traveled several places before returning to Los Angeles. When he got off the plane, he called Li Jinxi. Unfortunately, no one answered. Then, he dialed again to turn it off. Just after getting on the bus, Chen Yu called Gu Beichen, strongly expressed his dissatisfaction with him, hung up and went to the hospital first. When he arrived at the hospital, he was told that after Li Jinxi was discharged from the hospital a few days ago, Chen Yu didn''t go back to his apartment and drove directly to Li''s villa Jinxi''s current health, the Li family will not rest assured that she lives alone in the apartment, 100% in the villa. But after arriving at the villa, Chen Yu still didn''t see Li Jinxi, and the servant said it. Chen Yugen doesn''t believe such a lie? It''s cold outside. How can Jinxi go out?! "Then I''ll wait here." Chen Yu made up his mind to see Li Jinxi. He also knew clearly that the person was in the villa. Although he was shameless, he had no other way now, didn''t he? Li Yunze came back after receiving a call from the servant. Seeing that Chen Yu had disappeared for some days, he suddenly appeared again. He was angry and didn''t fight at all. "The Li family doesn''t welcome you!" Li Yunze sniffed coldly, "you''d better go!" "It''s your business whether you like it or not. I want to see my wife. It''s my business." Chen Yu opened his mouth faintly and looked up at Li Yunze. "See, I''ll go naturally." Li Yunze strode forward and without a word dragged Chen Yu''s collar with a punch Chen Yu didn''t hide, so he was forced by Li Yunze. The teeth broke the skin of the mouth, and a rusty smell spread in the mouth. Chen Yu rubbed indifferently and saw Li Yunze waving another fist... He dodged easily and sneered. "I''m willing to take that punch. Li Yunze, don''t push an inch!" Chen Yu snorted coldly and got up. Yu Guang caught a glimpse of the figure upstairs, "Jinxi!" Li Yunze stopped the momentum and looked upstairs. He saw Li Jinxi holding the stair guardrail with one hand and looking at their direction with empty eyes. Chen Yu ran upstairs and looked at the haggard and soulless Li Jinxi and clenched his hand. "Jinxi, I have something to say to you!" "Yunze," Li Jinxi didn''t even look at Chen Yu. He shouted and went downstairs, "tell him when Dad comes back." Li Yunze''s sideburns moved and nodded, "if you have anything, call me and I''ll pick you up." "If I don''t want to, he can''t beat me?" Li Jinxi smiled. Li Yunze looked back at Chen Yu with a cold hum and looked at Li Jinxi with some concern, but he also knew that no matter whether she and Chen Yu could be together in the end, as a family, he would support her. Chen Yu silently walked down, took his shawl and put it on Li Jinxi. "It''s a little cold outside. I''ll drive to the front and you''ll come out again..." Li Jinxi didn''t speak. Chen Yu''s heart was like a big stone, which made him unable to breathe. He knew... Most of the reason why Jinxi left with him was not to talk to him, but not to worry about Li Yunze and them. But anyway, it''s his chance! Chapter 1440 Li Yunze sent Li Jinxi to the car, looked at her, looked at Chen Yu coldly and closed the door. Watching the car leave, Li Yunze felt a little depressed until the car disappeared. He still stood in place and looked ahead After a while, Li Yunze converged his sight, spoke to Aunt Qiao and left. At the right time, a servant was not far away arranging the garbage to be sent out. Suddenly something broke and opened, and Li Yunze looked subconsciously I saw a servant holding half of the mirror in his hand and said with a look of annoyance: "go and get the special machine. Don''t wait for the broken residue to leave. Who did you poke..." Li Yunze frowned slightly at the mirror frame and walked over "Young master." Having been a gardener in the Li family for 30 years, he greeted Li Yunze when he saw him coming. "The mirror..." "Oh, it seems that it was changed out of the bathroom in the lady''s room." The gardener said, "I don''t know when it broke down. The young lady didn''t say. She didn''t let the servant in to clean these two days... Ah Qiao went in to replenish skin care products and found it." Li Yunze gradually twisted the center of his eyebrows, and the breath that was already pressing in his heart seemed to burst his chest. The mirror is definitely not broken today. I''m afraid it broke when dad was there Li Yunze swallowed uncontrollably. Without saying anything, he turned and walked to the car. With each step, his heart was very heavy. He shouldn''t have let Jinxi and Chen Yu go back, shouldn''t have ¡­¡­ Chen Yu took Li Jinxi all the way back to the apartment. From beginning to end, even if Li Jinxi ignored him, he still did what he should do. "You sit in the car for a while, and I''ll go upstairs and turn on the air conditioner..." Chen said. "I haven''t lived there for some days. I''m afraid it''s too cold for your health." Li Jinxi did not speak or move. Chen Yu stared at her deeply and then adjusted the temperature of the air conditioner in the car. She was afraid that it would be too hot in the car. When she got off, it would alternate between cold and hot. Li Jinxi was ill. Li Jinxi ignored Chen Yu''s actions. The more careful and gentle he was, the more painful and painful her heart was. After turning on the air conditioner of the apartment, Chen Yu went downstairs and picked up Li Jinxi. It happened that the temperature in the room rose. "Take a break," Chen said, looking at the time. "Would you like something to eat?" "Everything at home should be useless. I''ll ask someone to send fresh ingredients and clean it up by the way..." "Or, I''ll go to blossom & TB to buy you your favorite food?" Chen Yu kept saying, "but did Yunze and dad say what you should avoid recently? Anyway, spicy food is not edible..." Li Jinxi kept silent. She looked at Chen Yu and said there alone, as if she didn''t respond to him. He also felt very normal. "Forget it, I''d better let you bring the ingredients later and I''ll make them for you!" Chen Yu squatted in front of Li Jinxi and said with a smile, "you don''t always dislike that I''m busy and can''t cook for you several times... I''m almost busy recently. I''ll stay at home with you, okay?" Looking at Chen Yu like this, Li Jinxi gradually smiled. That kind of smile is not like the previous hearty and domineering queen fan''er, nor the shame of doing indescribable things with Chen Yu Yes, it''s just treacherous! Yes, Li Jinxi''s smile at the moment is very treacherous! "Chen Yu, if you whitewash the peace like this..." Li Jinxi''s voice was very light, but it hit Chen Yu''s heart very heavily. "Did you coax me as a child?" Chen Xuan slightly frowned and held Li Jinxi''s hand on his knee. "Jinxi, it''s not my fault or yours... Why should we bear it?" "But the world is like this..." Li Jinxi smiled miserably. "There are too many implications between people, families and families." She raised her eyebrows and her eyes were completely cold. "Can''t you erase everything if it''s not our fault?" Chen Yu''s eyebrows frowned tighter, "Jinxi..." "Do you know how much I love my brother?" Li Jinxi looked sinister. "Do you know how it feels to commit suicide in front of you, the loved ones you love and worship most?" She suddenly took out her hand held by Chen Yu, "all this is caused by your Chen family." Chen Yu''s whitewash of Taiping cracked because of Li Jinxi''s words, "Jinxi, it''s unfair for you to treat me like this!" "Then who is fair to my brother?" Li Jinxi roared, "who is fair to me and Yunze?" Chen Yu''s mouth was moving back and forth. He couldn''t say anything weak and pale "Chen Yu," Li Jinxi gritted his teeth, "either divorce or... We''ll hurt each other like this." "I won''t divorce you!" Chen Yu suddenly stood up, and his eyes began to bite with scarlet teeth. "Li Jinxi, I want a divorce in my life, dreaming!" He stepped back two steps for fear that such a strange Li Jinxi would make him collapse, "I won''t divorce you. You want a divorce in this life... It''s impossible!" He stressed again. No matter he or Li Jinxi, the support behind them is great. Even if they go to court for forced divorce, it is basically impossible. Li Jinxi has a Li family, and behind the Li family is a tangled and powerful Los Angeles family. However, behind Chen Yu is not the Chen family, but his mother''s family. If he really wants to make trouble, Li Jinxi may not be able to fulfill his wish. "Jinxi, remember what I said to you at our wedding?" Chen Yu''s eyes are filled with a thin layer of water mist. "For the rest of his life, wind and snow are you, plain is you, poverty is you, glory is you... The tenderness at the bottom of my heart is you. I''ve been looking at it all my life... Only you!" Li Jinxi''s heart was trembling, but she couldn''t think of the original beauty. Every time she doesn''t want to live "Jinxi, even if I am in pain, I will only be with you..." Chen Xuan clenched his teeth and squeezed out two words, "forever!" Li Jinxi once again put on a treacherous smile at the corners of her mouth, "then we''ll hurt each other..." she smiled more, "look, who breaks down first! Getting up, Li Jinxi turned and went to the bedroom. Behind the indifferent figure, there are tears. Chen Yu could not see it, but he could feel the kind of grief that filled the room But what can he do? If we compromise now, he and Jinxi will never be able to live together again. ¡­¡­ "As for Qu Weiwei, the designer of Vivian jewelry studio, the crime of deliberately wounding people by using harmful jewelry has been officially decided..." the real-time news came from the car radio. "Qu Weiwei was sentenced to three years'' imprisonment for the crime of deliberately wounding people. While revoking her jewelry designer''s license, she will be fined a total of 1.34 million." He Yining looks at Li Yunze and just wants to ask about Qu Weiwei''s judgment, he finds that his whole face is tight, and even the center of his eyebrows is tight. "What''s the matter with you?" He Yining asked anxiously. The fastest update of error free novels, please visit our collection site to read the latest novels! Chapter 1441 Li Yunze took a look at he Yining and then turned the car to one side He Yining didn''t continue to ask, but just turned off the radio station still talking about the news and changed to soft and soothing music. Sometimes, quiet company is also a kind of comfort and support. Because, not at any time, people who have something on their mind want to talk and solve their inner things. "Eh?!" He Yining looked at the more and more familiar scenery outside. The body leaning on the seat sat up, fanned his eyes and looked at Li Yunze "The professor asked me to come back and say something." Li Yunze explained. He parked his car in the parking lot and got off with he Yining. "Oh..." he Yining felt a little lost, but a little excited. Little loss is that she thought Li Yunze wanted to review her memory with her. Little excitement is that the professor called him back, and he even brought her here. When the professor saw two people walking into his office hand in hand, he was stunned first, and then he laughed. "Yining, you have finally won the 100000 mile long march!" The professor joked and motioned for the two to sit down. He Yining blushed and joked, "Professor, I didn''t expect you to gossip like this?" "I don''t have time to gossip." The professor said happily, "I think at the beginning, you usually like to sit in the back in class. I thought you were a fool, but every exam, although your grades are not among the best, they are also in the front..." He poured water for Li Yunze and he Yining and continued: "but every time, as long as Yunze has class, your custody is in the middle of the first row. No one can rob you..." "That''s because I sleep there at night." Why rather muttered. Li Yunze and the professor looked at her one after another, one with tenderness mixed with heartache, and the other with a loving smile. If people are old, what they like most is the look of young people and happy. They feel that the world has gone for decades and is all a beautiful thing in memory. "Back to business," the professor looked at Li Yunze. "Is there any impression of the project that the school is going to do that you mentioned last time?" Li Yunze nodded, "is this a fixed item?" "Yes." The professor said after giving an overview of the content, "the first phase of the research topic will be carried out next month. You can see if there is any conflict in your time. I''ll arrange it here and see if you can adjust the time." "There should be no problem next month." Li Yunze said after pondering. The professor looked at he Yining. "Yining has entered the group. It can be regarded as making some contributions to his alma mater and society." "Me?!" Why should I rather be a little confused. The Department of medicine of Luoyang university is among the top three in China. Many topics and clinical research here have won awards. It can be said that those who can enter the research and exchange group are top. Why do you rather look at the professor and Li Yunze with a slight frown. At the right time, Li Yunze said faintly, "Professor, I''m afraid it''s inappropriate?" He said and looked at he Yining. "After all, she studied like that in school. She didn''t make any great achievements after coming out. I''m afraid she will be criticized." As soon as the professor heard, "ha ha", he laughed and saw why he would rather gnash his teeth and secretly kick Li Yunze. Unfortunately, Li Yunze was calm and had no response at all. Why Ning looked at Li Yunze fiercely and said with clenched teeth: "do you say that about your future wife?" The professor smiled even more. He looked at Li Yunze and said, "you boy, still play this game with me." Paused, "if you don''t want Yining to enter, why do you bring her here?" Li Yunze didn''t speak anymore, but just took he Yining''s hand as comfort. "You still play this game with me," said the professor with deliberate dissatisfaction. "You can sell well if you get a bargain." Li Yunze raised his eyebrows, held he Yining''s hand tightly, and continued to talk to the professor about the group. Why Ning''s heart is warm, not only because Li Yunze considers for her, but also because... At the moment, his hand is holding her, very warm, warm to his heart. After talking about things, the professor, Li Yunze and he Yining had dinner in the school canteen. "I''ll go back first," the professor smiled at them. "Haven''t you two come back together? Just turn around when it''s all right. Luo has changed a lot," he smiled deeply at he Yining. "It hasn''t changed either." If he meant something, he Yining''s face turned red again. Obviously, Li Yunze''s face is much thicker, "it''s necessary to get familiar with it. If you don''t come back for academic research, it''s not good to get lost." "You boy..." the professor smiled and shook his head. After sighing, he said goodbye to the two humanitarians. The trees without leaves whirled in the dim yellow light. Li Yunze took his pocket with one hand and he Yining''s hand with the other. He walked slowly towards the direction of the Medical College All the familiar things, the familiar breath and the familiar people make both of them silent at the moment. It''s like feeling the past and dreaming about the future. "Chen Yu is back," Li Yunze said suddenly, "take Jinxi away." Why Ning''s heart suddenly tightened, and his steps didn''t stop with Li Yunze, but he looked at him. That''s why his face was tense in the car at that time?! Li Yunze''s eyes fell in front and sighed gently, "Yining, I think Jinxi loves Chen Yu and they can be together. Anyway, as long as Jinxi puts down, even if we don''t accept it, we will ignore that Chen Yu is Chen''s family because we love Jinxi and want her to be happy." "It''s the right thing to do." He Yining gave Li Yunze a firm answer, "the happiness of his family is the most important. Besides, Chen Yu''s origin has no choice." "But I was wrong..." Li Yunze stopped slowly. He Yining also stopped and asked with a slight frown, "what do you mean?" Li Yunze looked sideways at he Yining. "I can''t put it down. How can Jinxi put it down? It''s a nightmare..." his voice was a little heavy, "Yining, it''s the deepest nightmare buried in my heart." Relatives will hate and resent who died. But relatives commit suicide in front of themselves. It''s a knife wrapped around their heart. When they touch it, they cut it... It''s bloody cruelty. He Yining''s sharp heart trembled because of the grief spreading from the bottom of Li Yunze''s eyes at the moment. She slightly pricked her lips. The hair feeling without origin rose again "Jinxi punishes herself by torturing herself, while torturing Chen Yu..." Li Yunze''s eyes gradually understood, revealing the deepest vulnerability in his heart. He Yining tightened his lower lip, and the uneasy feeling was because the breath filled Li Yunze''s body at the moment was becoming stronger and stronger. No matter how strong people are, they are vulnerable, and Li Yunze is no exception. "Li Yunze..." "Yining, let''s get married!" Chapter 1442 Li Yunze and he Yining spoke almost at the same time Why Ning''s words still choked in her throat, because she forgot to respond to Li Yunze''s "proposal". "Yining, let''s get married!" Li Yunze opened his mouth again and stared deeply at he Yining. "As you said, pain can be halved and happiness can be doubled..." He Yining''s nose has been sour, and even his eyes are red. "How can you propose like this..." he Yining was a little overwhelmed. "If it''s not romantic at all, don''t say it, not even basic." On the campus of Luoda at night, Li Yunze''s eyes looked deeply at he Yining. His voice was soft and charming, and gently spilled over his lips, "there will be anything. I know you will promise, but I''m afraid you will refuse proudly..." Then he took Yining into his arms, "Yining, give me to you. Isn''t this the best and most romantic proposal?" Some propose with a ring, others propose with flowers to spell a heart Some people kneel on one knee under the romantic fireworks, piously look at the hostess and say their wish to accompany them for a lifetime. But for he Yining, Li Yunze''s proposal by himself is the greatest romance for her. Because it was more than 6000 days and nights, her obsession, her life, her expectation... Her love! Li Yunze held Ning tightly. He didn''t know whether it was because of the Jinxi mirror incident. He had an unspeakable worry in his heart. But that worry doesn''t seem to be entirely because of Jinxi. But when he wants to study deeply, he can''t find anything "Yining, let''s get the certificate first..." Li Yunze said, "for the wedding, just wait until the holidays one by one, okay?" "OK." Why would you rather smile. "I''ve been studying violin very hard recently. She has her own persistence and pursuit. I don''t want to stop it." Li Yunze said, "although there are worries, it is also her life. As parents, we can guide and worry, but we can''t stop her thoughts." He Yining nodded, smiling deeper. "You are the father, you has the final say." "You said, when shall we get the certificate?" Li Yunze slightly let go of he Yining and looked at her with burning eyes, "you choose a day." Why Ning instantly understood the meaning in his eyes For more than 6000 days and nights, he knew that every time she lived her own anniversary without him. "There are still a few days left for my licensed examination, and the results will be announced in another week. I will receive an official licensed doctor''s license three days later." Why is Ning smiling at the corners of his mouth and bending down with the corners of his eyes because of the smile, echoing up and down to form a full moon, "the day I got the official license, shall we get the license?" "Why?" Li Yunze asked with a smile. "The Li family is a medical family. When I want to marry you, I will not disgrace this family..." he Yining said with a smile, "although I didn''t start studying medicine because of you." "Really not because of me?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. Why would you rather shake your head, smile at the corners of your mouth and say, "no!" Li Yunze stared deeply at he Yining and said without too much Entanglement: "first of all, you have not disgraced the family. Secondly... I marry you only because you are not a doctor, okay?" He Yining smiled and nodded, "I understand, but it''s more meaningful when I want to marry you." Li Yunze once again took why Ning into his arms. "OK, with you..." his eyes were deep. "You officially hold a license, and we''ll get married... All our lives!" Why Ning took Li Yunze''s waist and rubbed his cheek on his chest. There was deep love in the bottom of his eyes. It''s only half a month. She must match Li Yunze, the most shining star in the medical field, with her best self Whether it''s her obsession or her other love, in short... That day will be the most memorable day in her life. He Yining thought that day had indeed become the most memorable day in her life! ¡­¡­ The iron door was opened with a bang. The policewoman in the women''s prison received the record book of sending the prisoner, "Qu Weiwei, intentional assault..." after she murmured, signed the acceptance record and looked at the police sending the prisoner, "the rate of increase of this female prisoner is too fast recently." With that, the female prison police also looked at Qu Weiwei''s prison photos. She also read the news. It''s too light for a vicious woman to be sentenced to three years for her own selfish desires. "No way, now women have strong vanity and jealousy. What can''t they do for the top?" The policeman glanced at Qu Weiwei, who was brought in, with a sneer in her voice. Qu Weiwei''s face was as changeable as the palette. She looked at the police fiercely, as if she wanted to eat people. "It''s frightening to say that it''s..." the female prison policeman sneered. "For money and status, such outrageous things can be done. What''s a jewelry designer? Disgusting!" "What are you talking about?" Qu Weiwei didn''t hold back. The feeling of falling from the sky made her become a beast that was about to explode at any time, "be careful, I''ll sue you for slander!" The female prison police and the sending police looked at each other and laughed sarcastically. Let''s not say that Qu Weiwei is ignored. Even if it''s anything else... We have to see if we can go out. She is so unscrupulous that she deliberately uses toxic jewelry as a famous product. Many people can''t see it. She has prepared a series of "set meals" for her, which will definitely enable her to enjoy the sense of "being superior". After accepting Qu Weiwei, the female prison police took people into the cell. There are ten people in a room. Unfortunately, there is an acquaintance in the cell assigned to Qu Weiwei Xia Xiao! When Xia Xiao saw Qu Weiwei, she stared in surprise. She couldn''t figure out how long it was before and after. She even came in. Qu Weiwei almost forgot Xia Xiao. When she saw her, she looked surprised. "Qu Weiwei?" "Xia Xiao!" The policewoman sneered, "it''s really a gathering of people... There are friends in this cell." She sneered and pointed to the innermost bed next to the toilet door. "That''s your bed." Qu Weiwei clenched her teeth and clenched her hands. She saw that it was a hard board bed with no bedding, just a rolled up sheet and a pillow. "Find your own sheets and quilts..." the female prison police saw her idea. "If you feel cold or something, you can expect your family to send it to you!" After that, the female prison policeman turned and left the cell without saying anything. Qu Weiwei looked around and asked in a awe inspiring voice, "where''s the quilt on my bed?" Chapter 1443 No one answered Qu Weiwei. They all looked at her with various expressions. Qu Weiwei stood and looked at the early female prisoners. No one paid attention to her one by one. She dragged her quilt and prepared to go to bed. Even Xia Xiao lay back silently, covered with the poor thin quilt, and couldn''t share with her at all. "If you don''t give me my bedding, none of you will want to sleep today." Qu Weiwei said fiercely. The sound of "ah" came, very light, but with contempt and ridicule. The only female prisoner who didn''t lie down was a little strong, sitting on the bed with a domineering spirit that belonged only to the cell. Qu Weiwei looked at the man and saw that the mattress on her bed was thicker than others. Even the cover was three layers. "Did you take the bedding on my bed?" Qu Weiwei walked over, "I just want mine." The female criminal smiled, "Oh, come and get it." Qu Weiwei frowned slightly. Unexpectedly, the man was so talkative, so she approached again Xia Xiao stared at Qu Weiwei silently, and there was an unspeakable emotion flowing in the bottom of her eyes. At the court session that day, she was confused when he Yining''s lawyer asked her. For a moment, she forgot that she went to Shuya to find he Yining. In fact, Qu Weiwei suggested it. Recently, they organized to watch the news. She heard other people in the women''s prison talking about Qu Weiwei, Li Yunze and he Yining. They used to know each other. Most importantly, it is likely that Qu Weiwei used her to deal with he Yining. Thinking of this, Xia Xiao originally planned to remind Qu Weiwei with her eyes, but now she silently turned around and closed her eyes. "Bang" came, followed by the sound of hitting the bed pole, followed by the dull sound of pain. All the people were shocked. No one dared to say anything. Even without looking, they knew that Qu Weiwei was kicked by Wang Xia when she came forward. Qu Weiwei was kicked in the lower abdomen, and the whole person''s cold sweat came out. She curled up in pain, but her eyes looked at Wang Xia angrily. Wang Xia smiled, "do you want any more?" She deliberately picked up the quilt, "or do you sleep with me?" When it comes to ''sleeping together'', Wang Xia''s eyes looking at Qu Weiwei are obviously ambiguous. Qu Weiwei had some difficulty breathing. She looked around and no one paid attention to the situation at the moment. She is not a fool. She immediately knows that this strong woman is the eldest sister in this cell. Where dare she ask for a quilt? "Right, would it be better to learn early?" Wang Xia saw Qu Weiwei stooping to the innermost bed because she stroked the place she had kicked. She smiled and lay down. It was very cold. Qu Weiwei curled up on the hard bed with a strong hatred under her eyes. But at this moment, she didn''t expect to meet her, not only these, but also more... To trample on her "superior" heart at that moment. The three-year judgment was made in the open. And what really wants to destroy Qu Weiwei is far beyond her imagination in the past three years ¡­¡­ In the dark room, only the light from the outside and the light reflected from the computer screen. Meng Yi sat on the sofa with his notebook in his arms. His fingers kept wandering on the touch pad. He saw that the screen was full of English materials page by page. Seeing the end, Meng Yi''s eyebrows have almost ended. "Qu Weiwei''s toss has prolonged the opportunity to get things, but fortunately, I can turn light into dark." Meng Yinan took his mobile phone and dialed a group of numbers. "I''m Meng Yi. Well, get me a fake identity..." Meng Yi said to the other party, "yes, I''ll go to your side first, and then stay for a few days. When the Chen family situation falls, I''ll use a new identity... Well, OK, see you later." Meng Yi hung up the phone, closed his notebook, put it aside, got up and walked to the bedroom. For so many years, he spent so long time, Li Yunhao''s research, he must get it! ¡­¡­ Time, as if in the dust settled in the past. 11. He Yining studied the violin hard in school, and he Yining worked hard to prepare for the exam. Li Yunze basically goes to see one after two or three days. Although the father and daughter have not had an open relationship yet, it is obvious that their feelings have improved a lot. "Why didn''t mom come with you today?" Asked one by one. Li Yunze rubbed his little head one by one, "because mom has an exam today." "Officially licensed?" Asked one by one with shining eyes. Li Yunze looked at his daughter and happily interacted with her while eating the cake he brought. He was in a good mood and nodded, "yes... Well, in addition, when mom gets the license plate, we have a surprise for you." "Really?" One by one''s eyes brightened. "What I like most is surprise." Li Yunze raised his eyebrows and smiled. He said with a little worry, "I hope it''s not a scare for you." "As long as it''s a happy thing, it''s a surprise." One by one grinned, with the cream on the cake beside the small mouth. Li Yunze took the meal paper and wiped it for her. "I have a meeting later, so I won''t wait for Xiaojie with you, huh?" One by one smiled and nodded. Li Yunze was very happy that those who didn''t break their promise would often come to see her this time. After Li Yunze left Spencer, he went to Luoda. A kick-off meeting for the early stage of the academic research conference will be held today, followed by preparations. Look at the time. He Yining should not have finished the exam by now Li Yunze sent a text message to he Yining: after the exam, come directly to Luoyang University. I''ll have a meeting here and we''ll have dinner together. Seeing the successful sending, Li Yunze got out of the car and walked to the Medical College However, before he took two steps, he received a call from Li Jinxi. "Jin Xi?" "Are you in the hospital?" Li Jinxi asked. "No, just arrived at Luoda." Li Yunze said, "what''s the matter?" "Nothing, but Chen Yu was just called away by Beichen..." Li Jinxi said, "I want to go out, but the car is not here." She sighed, "forget it, it''s nothing. I''ll let the people of the company come home." Li Yunze was going to have a meeting, looked at the time and said, "I have a meeting here. If you really want to go out, call the servant to pick you up." "Yes." Li Jinxi''s voice sounded very calm. Li Yunze hung up the phone, thought about it, and dialed Gu Beichen. Beichen knew Chen Yu''s identity early in the morning and suddenly called him. Li Yunze was a little uneasy. "Beichen..." "Yunze," Gu Beichen seemed to know what Li Yunze wanted to ask, "Mo''er was taken away. It''s Chen Yu''s eldest brother. I don''t have time to explain now. He needs to calculate Chen Zhaobai''s route for me." Paused, "you first pacify Jinxi." Chapter 1444 "What?!" Li Yunze stared in surprise, "why did the Chen family take Jian Mo?" After he asked, he suddenly grinned secretly, "is it Shi Shaoqin?!" "Yes!" Gu Beichen''s voice was dignified, "Yunze, Mo''er will be taken away, I......" "Shi Shaoqin is trying to force you. He should not hurt Jian Mo for the time being." Li Yunze wrung his eyebrows and said, "the problem now is Jian Mo''s body." Gu Beichen was silent, then gritted his teeth and said, "anyway, I have to settle this account with Shi Shaoqin this time." "I won''t delay you," said Li Yunze. "Beichen, remember... No matter when or under any circumstances, you will never fight alone. I, dragon boss, go south... We are all your back." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly. Deep in the ink pupil, some were moved by the support of his brothers, "good!" After hanging up, Li Yunze sent a text message to Li Jinxi: Jian Mo was taken away. Chen Yu can help. Beichen asked me to tell you. Li Jinxi looked at Li Yunze''s text message and gradually lost his mind. What do you mean Jane Mo was taken away? Did the Chen family do it, too? Thinking of this, Li Jinxi couldn''t figure it out. When did Beichen get into trouble with the Chen family and know that Chen Yu is the Chen family? Li Jinxi slowly lowered his hand when the mobile phone screen went dark, looked forward without focus, and gradually lost his mind Mingming was still worried about Jian Mo and thinking about Beichen and Chen''s family, but in a flash, her mind was completely empty and had nothing. Li Jinxi found that she has been like this recently. It seems that she can''t think about any problems. Only by escaping, can she not let herself live in a nightmare every minute. ¡­¡­ With his understanding of Chen Zhaobai and Gu Beichen''s speculation about Shi Shaoqin, Chen Yu formulated a route to chase Jian mo. First go to Malaysia, then go to Amsterdam, the Netherlands! "Are you sure Shi Shaoqin will eventually take Jian Mo to Holland?" Chen Yu asked anxiously. Gu Beichen''s heart was heavy and his face was as cold as carving. Because he met Jian Mo, he was worried about the uncertainty and obviously strained his mood. "I''m gambling..." Gu Beichen said faintly, then turned and walked out. "Go back and accompany Jinxi. You can''t intervene in the rest." Looking at Gu Beichen''s back, Chen Yu felt as if he had been blocked by many stones, which made him out of breath. With a dark sigh, Chen Yu looked at the time, then went to the parking lot and drove to the apartment When she got home, Li Jinxi fell asleep on the lazy sofa on the balcony. Chen Yu stood in place and quietly looked at Li Jinxi''s quiet sleeping face. Gradually, she deepened her eyes. Although they live in the same house now, they seem to be the most familiar strangers. Chen Yu was in a dignified mood. He slowed down and came forward. Gently, he pulled the thin blanket that had almost slipped for Li Jinxi However, although his action was very light, he woke up Li Jinxi. "Huh?!" Li Jinxi''s body suddenly opened his eyes with an exciting, and the purpose was Chen Yu''s familiar face. "It''s disturbing you..." Chen Yu gently opened his mouth. No matter how obvious disgust and resistance Li Jinxi had at the bottom of his eyes, he still smiled and said, "do you still want to go out? Do you want me to take you out for a walk?" Li Jinxi did not speak, but frowned slightly. "The sun is fine outside, and there is no wind. We can go for a spin..." Chen Yu wanted to pull Li Jinxi''s hand, but she avoided it. He felt a helpless loss at the bottom of his eyes, but it was only in a flash that he recovered his calm appearance. "Or we can go to the mall for a walk..." Chen said with a smile. "Winter is coming soon. You haven''t bought any new clothes recently." "I''m a little tired," Li Jinxi got up with a dry voice. "I''ll go to bed." Chen Yu slightly frowned, "Jinxi..." Li Jinxi kept walking towards the bedroom and said, "I''ve just eaten. Don''t call me later." Chen Yu''s eyes were sad and gradually cracked. The corner of his mouth crossed astringently and gently replied, "OK..." It''s easy to say a word, but it''s like digging your heart. Chen Yu stood in place and couldn''t move for a long time. He thought that even if Jinxi was indifferent to him, he could insist, but it turned out... No. Such a sense of strangeness, just a few days, he has been unable to stick to it. What might happen? Even if it''s just in a room, as long as you can see her and have a chance to take care of her... It''s good, isn''t it?! ¡­¡­ Why would you rather come out after the exam, look at the sun outside, breathe deeply, and have a confident smile on your face. She is well prepared and confident that she can pass at one time. Take out the mobile phone and turn it on. First, the voice of SMS came. Then, wechat also showed several messages. He Yining first read the text message and saw that it was sent by Li Yunze. He picked his eyebrow with a smile and walked out. After taking a taxi, why did you rather report the address of Luoda before reading the wechat voice message. Yan Yan: my Yining, I wish you success in the exam. Zihan: I sent an order through the satellite. I must pass it at one time, and then give it to me when I come back The first message is interrupted, followed by a text message below. Zihan: show her cervical erosion! "..." why did Ning twitch at the corner of his mouth and then hold his mouth and smile. Thinking of the last "meat poking" incident between Pei Shengyao and Fang Zihan in Shuya restaurant, why would you rather imagine that Fang Zihan sent half of the message and sent the following message after being robbed by Pei Shengyao. Looking at the passing street view outside the window, why Ning gradually narrowed his eyes and enjoyed everything in the sun. splendid! Everything will be better She and Li Yunze, Zihan and Pei Shengyao... Next, there is only Yanyan single to be solved. When he arrived at Luoyang University, he Yining didn''t go directly to the medical school, but strolled around the campus of Luoyang University and walked along the paths and places he used to go. She sent a text message to Li Yunze and told him to call her after the meeting. Within a minute of sending the message, the phone rang, Li Yunze''s. "Have you finished the meeting?" He Yining asked. "Well, just when your text message arrived, I just left the conference room." Li Yunze said something, nodded with several professors in the school, and went to the elevator without stopping, "where are you?" "Guess?" He Yining looked at a sculpture at a straight distance ahead, with a sly light in his eyes. "You guessed right. Is there a prize?" Li Yunze asked with a smile. Why rather pick eyebrows, "how do you feel that you must know where I am?" "Give me ten minutes!" Li Yunze said and suddenly hung up the phone. Why was Ning stunned and wondered whether the so-called "ten minutes" was Li Yunze busy or something? But seven or eight minutes later, when he Yining looked at Li Yunze coming towards her, she didn''t know how to describe her happiness at that moment! Chapter 1445 "How did you know I was here?" He Yining smiled and asked Li Yunze, "you won''t use this time to find me in the school monitoring room?" "It''s too late..." Li Yunze raised his eyebrows and stood in front of he Yining. "Today is the day when you officially hold the license. You want me to come to you when you''re in Luoyang University. Here, you can not only see the statue of Hippocrates at the gate of the medical school, but also your favorite place to stay when you were in school." "Li Yunze, you really have a crush on me." He Yining said with shining eyes, "even if I''m often here, you know." After Li Yunze lowered his eyes and smiled, he looked at he Yining and said, "don''t you like staying here because I often go to the laboratory from this road?" Why Ning looked at Li Yunze with some teasing eyes, smiled at the corners of his mouth, put his arms around his waist and said gently: "Li Yunze, the moment you came here, it was a dream I had dreamed many, many times..." "So, here I am, fulfill your dream!" Li Yunze grabbed he Yining''s shoulder and said softly. Under the setting sun, two people ignored the past students and held them recklessly. There was a little girl talking and watching excitedly. She felt very romantic. There are also journalism students who quickly and accurately capture this scene and plan to match the most beautiful photos when writing campus news Li Yunze let go of he Yining, "go to dinner, huh?" "Shall we still eat in the school canteen today?" Why rather pick eyebrows, "I''m quite interested in the ''dark cuisine'' in school now." "What dark cuisine?" Li Yunze was puzzled. "Yes, such as fried meat with grapes, fried oranges with vegetables and fried bananas with watermelon..." Li Yunze twitched at the corner of his mouth, "does Luo Da have it, too?" "We must keep pace with the times... I heard that the second canteen has!" He Yining said with a smile, "let''s go and see what dark cuisine it is today." "..." Li Yunze refused. However, seeing why he was so excited, he said that sometimes women''s requirements, men only need to cooperate and compromise, and there is no need to have opinions. Li Yunze followed he Yining and tasted the legendary dark cuisine. He didn''t know whether the chef of Luoda came from New Oriental or Lanxiang. They admired his skill in frying watermelon and banana. "Is it delicious?" Li Yunze took he Yining''s hand out of the restaurant. He Yining trembled with some surprise, "sure enough, dark cuisine is dark cuisine..." Li Yunze smiled. "It''s worth encouraging to dare to try new things." Why should Ning curl his lips, look at Li Yunze''s way and ask curiously, "don''t you go home?" "I have something to do. I have to go back to the medical college." He Yining didn''t doubt that there was him, "Oh", so he went to the medical college hand in hand with Li Yunze The sky is getting darker and darker as the winter comes. The street lights in the campus are slowly on with the dim light. When he arrived at the statue of Hippocrates, Li Yunze did not turn to the gate of the medical school, but continued to walk forward. Standing still under the statue, Li Yunze looked up at the statue and asked, "Yining, what is the oath of Hippocrates that impressed you most?" He Yining also looked up at the statue and said solemnly in his eyes: "try your best to take medical measures that I think are beneficial to patients, and can''t bring pain and harm to patients..." After saying that, why would you rather turn your head and look at Li Yunze, "what about you?" "Practicing medicine in vain is only for curing diseases." Li Yunze said slowly, "don''t give the poison to anyone, and never instruct anyone to use it." Hippocrates is the father of medicine. His oath is the medical ethics of the medical community all over the world. This sentence is not only the worship of Yunze, but also the self-discipline of Yunze. Li Yunhao''s last research is not only a breakthrough in the medical community, but also a great benefit to many criminals. But even though he was injected with drugs, even though he was tortured by drugs without people, ghosts or ghosts... His will collapsed, he didn''t take out his research results and trade with the devil. Taking back his sight, Li Yunze looked softly at he Yining, "Yining, I''m glad that we will live together in the same direction in the future..." Yining''s obstetrics and Gynecology filled his lack in medicine. Li Yunze felt that this was a circle, a real circle. Whether it''s work or their later life He Yining''s burning eyes on Shangli Yunze were gradually sinking into the world he gave, and there was a song in his ear, which was the song of the medical school. Why Ning looked sideways and saw that the medical students were wearing white coats. Everyone had a goblet with red candles in it, just like a glass of red wine under the light. Everyone sang the courtyard song with a smile and gathered around he Yining and Li Yunze People lined up in layers of hearts, the school song again and again, in front of the medical school at night, under the Hippocratic sculpture He Yining''s heart throbbed and was a little flustered. She looked at Li Yunze with slightly red eyes. She saw him step back and kneel on one knee. At the same time, she took out a ring from her pocket "I propose to you with the oath of ''Hippocratic''..." Li Yunze looks at he Yining with burning eyes under the candlelight and slowly opens his mouth with a smile, "silly Ning, here is your persistence and mine. I not only want to practice medicine in innocence, but also want to hold hands with you to the white head with a roar..." He Yining''s eyes have been filled with water mist, which is happy tears. "He Yining," Li Yunze handed the ring forward, "will you marry me?" Tears of happiness fell. Why would you rather suck your nose and say loudly to Li Yunze: "Li Yunze... I will! I will... I will marry you!" The students envy such love one by one and are also moved by such love. The original courtyard song has also become a song full of love "Although it''s just a faint word, I''ve really made all the vows. From your deep eyes, I can feel that you will give me the most sincere tenderness. You ask me with the most serious expression whether I want to... I want, I want, I want! I''m willing to experience the wind and rain with you, and I''m willing to join hands with you in the sunrise and afterglow..." Under the beautiful song, Li Yunze gently raised he Yining''s hand and put the simple but not simple ring on her index finger Under the light, he Yining saw what seemed to be in the ring. She curled her hand slightly and looked at Li Yunze with a tearful smile. "Li Yunze, can you talk about this ring?" Chapter 1446 Li Yunze stood up and raised the ring slightly so that the light fell on it Inside the ring is engraved with the words "1 + 1 = 1". "One plus one equals one?!" Why is it that he whispered rather, with a happy and sweet smile at the corners of his mouth, and his eyes fell on the ''+'', which is different from the numbers. The ''+'' is changed into red by special technology. She and Li Yunze have one by one, and the red cross represents medicine. Why Ning''s eyes are red again. Such a proposal and such a ring are of special significance to her and to Li Yunze. Leaning aside, why Ning said with a choking voice: "Li Yunze, why are you so attentive and romantic?" Li Yunze smiled, pulled up he Yining''s hand and put the ring on her finger, "silly Ning, I said, there will be no less... Proposal, ring, romance..." He raised his eyes and stared at he Yining deeply. "You should enjoy everything." "Li Yunze..." he Yining immediately rushed into Li Yunze''s arms, wrapped his arms around his neck and sent his lips. Beautiful singing, specific bad situation, ingenious proposal He Yining, all your persistence is only for the happiness of this moment! Thousands of words, painting a lingering kiss, so beautiful, so people can''t move their eyes Several professors of the medical school watched from the outside and laughed about why Ning and Li Yunze at the beginning. "It''s going to fry tomorrow..." "Don''t worry, such news won''t flow out." In addition to the witnesses, today''s proposal is just the memory of everyone pausing at this moment. After all, Li Yunze and he Yining are not stars. Their news will become medical hype, which will only backfire and cover up the real achievements and efforts of he Yining. ¡­¡­ Tan Zhonglang sat in the wine cellar, drinking wine, bottle by bottle, as if drinking water. "Lang..." Jin shaosi went down the cellar and frowned at Tan Zhonglang, who was sitting on the ground drinking. Tan Zhonglang glanced at Jin shaosi, sneered, took back his sight and continued to drink. Jin shaosi sighed deeply, came forward, squatted half beside Tan Zhonglang, looked at several red wine bottles lying on the ground, and frowned more tightly, "you should know that your tongue can''t drink like this." Tan Zhonglang didn''t speak, just held up the bottle and poured a few mouthfuls. Jin shaosi''s eyebrows tightened again. Instead of grabbing Tan Zhonglang''s wine, he just sat on the ground and leaned against the column. The temperature of the wine cellar is a little low, and the ground is also a little cold, which is not very comfortable. "Ace..." Tan Zhonglang''s eyes fell unreal in front, "what do you think it''s like to love someone?" "I have selfish thoughts, but I want to see her happy and happy." Jin shaosi spoke. "Yes, I have selfish thoughts, but I want to see her happy and happy." Tan Zhonglang giggled and said after drinking, "ace, I went to prison this afternoon." Jin shaosi was silent and didn''t answer. "You know what? I didn''t even see her people..." Tan Zhonglang sneered. Because he drank too much wine, he spilled red blood in his eyes and looked at Jin shaosi with complex emotions. "It''s a three-year case. Why can''t anyone see it?" "Maybe, just in prison, so no visitors are allowed." Jin shaosi spoke slowly. "Hehe, isn''t it?" Tan Zhonglang smiled, his eyes fell in front of him again and said, "but what I want to send in is also blocked..." he gently fanned his drooping eyelids, and the smell of wine filled the air, "ace, tell me, what''s the reason?" Jin shaosi didn''t speak, but his eyes fell in front of him Li Yunze wants to know what happened in those years. Now, the only clue is Qu Weiwei. He checked some of the events of that year, and even checked the network of people who bought Ho''s winery, but he found nothing. Now, no matter he or Li Yunze, the only hope is on Qu Weiwei. If you want to pry open Qu Weiwei''s mouth, you can only make her completely collapse. The way to make her collapse is very simple. Crush and trample all her "pride"! "I just want to see her," Tan Zhonglang squatted the wine bottle on the ground. "Why is it so difficult to send her some bedding?" "People are always responsible for what they do." Jin shaosi slowly opened his mouth, looked sideways at Tan Zhonglang, and said calmly, "Alan, you should know something about the original thing, shouldn''t you?" Tan Zhonglang sneered and looked back, "I just want to send something to her." His eyes were mixed with and anger. "You know what will happen in prison, especially in women''s prison." He looked at Mr. Jin again. "Besides, he was specially told." "What''s the use of sending it in?" Jin shaosi asked, "it''s just futile, isn''t it?" "Then I''ll give it more. They don''t need to compete with Weiwei!" Jin shaosi frowned slightly. He sympathized with Tan Zhonglang''s persistence, but he didn''t agree, and even felt naive. Without saying anything, Jin shaosi got up and wanted to leave. "Ace..." The dry and dumb voice came from behind, with pale weakness. Jin shaosi stopped, but didn''t look back. Tan Zhonglang looked at Jin shaosi''s back with scarlet eyes. "Send her some bedding and supplies. I don''t want anything else." Jin shaosi sighed deeply, turned back and said softly, "you know it''s useless..." "I just want peace of mind." Jin shaosi was silent and said, "OK!" Without stopping, Jin shaosi left the cellar. ¡°Boss£¡¡± Lu fan comes forward. "Is there any news from ruomin?" Asked Jin shaosi. Lu Fan shook his head. "I''m still in contact with people related to Hejia winery that year, but what I''ve been in contact with at present seems to have little in-depth understanding of the car accident that year." Jin shaosi walked out with his eyebrows twisted. The more mysterious things were in those years, the more uneasy they were. Predictable is not terrible, terrible is... Unknown existence! ¡­¡­ There was a hazy mist in Herman Park in Houston in the morning. "You mean Chen Zhaobai took Gu Beichen''s wife?" Meng Yi looks at the foreign man in a long windbreaker and hat opposite. The man nodded. "The Chen family got the share from the Mo Palace this time. Obviously, it''s the Mo Palace''s plan." Paused, "I''m afraid the Chen family can''t protect themselves this time." "That''s not right?!" Meng Yi smiled in the corner of his mouth, "Li Yunhao has something to save the Chen family from thinking about." "Do you really think Li Yunhao didn''t destroy the research results?" The man frowned. Meng Yi sneered, "definitely not!" "In fact, I''ve always been curious. Why are you so sure?" The man looked at Meng Yi and asked, "what do you know to be so sure?" Chapter 1447 Meng Yi''s eyes were deep. He looked at the foreign man in the windbreaker and smiled. "If a research is so easy to be destroyed, it is not a breakthrough research." Paused, "people have extravagant expectations." Li Yunhao''s original research was a cross era research project for the medical community. How can it be destroyed?! Moreover, the development of Li family in medicine in recent years is at its peak. Compared with the previous time, it is developing rapidly Is there really no research result of Li Yunhao?! I''m afraid not?! Foreign men don''t quite understand Meng Yi''s words, but his purpose is only that research. As for Meng Yi''s words, he doesn''t need to understand them. What he needs is the result. "You''ve got your new identity," said the foreign man. "When you return to Los Angeles this time, no one will find it... Here, I''ll regularly let ''Meng Yi'' appear, just in case." Although people in Los Angeles don''t seem to doubt Meng Yi, he doesn''t want to take risks. For that research, he has been planning for so many years. How can he fall short because of a small mistake! ¡­¡­ As he Yining walked, he chuckled and smiled. From time to time, he raised his hand wearing the ring in front of him and looked at it tirelessly by the light and moonlight Li Yunze took his pocket with both hands and walked with why Ning''s cheerful steps. Looking at her happy appearance, he always had a gentle smile on his mouth. That is a kind of, you are happy, is my happy emotion Before, he couldn''t understand Beichen''s of Jian mo. now, he can understand it. "Ah..." He Yining put the ring on his chest, turned with a sigh on his face, walked backwards and looked at Li Yunze with a smile, "Li Yunze, what should I do? I''m a little happy at a loss." "Then you have to be smooth!" Li Yunze said with a solemn eyebrow. "Huh?" Why did Ning fan his eyes, "what do you mean?" "In the following years, I''m afraid there will be too much happiness. You''ll have trouble at that time. What if you make yourself a ''psycho''?" Li Yunze joked. Why should I rather curl my mouth, "it doesn''t matter. Anyway, you are the youngest and promising extradivine doctor. With you, it doesn''t matter if I''m a ''psycho''." Li Yunze lowered his eyes and smiled. The soft eyes under his eyes flooded all nerves. In this way, the two walked and talked. In the campus of Luoda, even if the wind in late autumn is very cold, their hearts are hot. "Be careful..." Suddenly, Li Yunze shouted. When he Yining was stunned because of inertia, her feet had already hit the small teeth on the side of the lawn. She heard an "ah", and she sat down. Li Yunze didn''t move, but looked at why he Ning was stunned. The grass has begun to turn yellow, but it is very thick. Suddenly sitting down hurts a little, but it doesn''t hurt as expected. "You''re still laughing..." why would you rather gnash your teeth? "It''s normal that you shouldn''t take an arrow step forward, and then have a good feeling. Either pull my hand into your arms, or hold my waist and look at me affectionately?" She said angrily, "Li Yunze, it''s unscientific for you to be so indifferent!" "The performance of watching too many brain disabled dramas!" Li Yunze gives a conclusion. As soon as he Yining heard it, he immediately looked like a small beast was about to explode. He propped up his body by pressing it on the lawn. That posture was completely a fight. "Li Yunze, do you mean I''m mentally disabled?" He Yining said that and began to attack after Li Yunze. Li Yunze naturally won''t let he Yining attack. She always skilfully dodges when she wants to catch him Laughter and "arrogant yelling" echoed in the campus of Luoda at night. Such pursuit should not belong to Li Yunze''s character, but he also gave him a dream of youth. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles women''s prison. After dinner, the women''s prison police organized the prisoners to go back to their cells to write their experiences after watching the news and doing some study. "The words are pretty good..." when Wang Xia saw that Qu Weiwei had written her experience, she took away her book directly. Qu Weiwei was about to write her name, but she was taken away by Wang Xia. She stood up at once, her eyes mixed with forbearing anger and said, "give it to me!" Wang Xia smiled, "no!" "Wang Xia, give me my book!" Qu Weiwei tried to bear it. Wang Xia smiled, looked at Qu Weiwei curiously and asked, "Qu Weiwei, do you have a problem? When did I get your book?" Then she looked at everyone, "tell me, did I take it?" "We didn''t see..." Wang Xia''s attendant spoke immediately. "You..." Qu Weiwei glared at the woman fiercely, and finally her eyes fell on Xia Xiao. "Xia Xiao, you''re right next to me, you see, right?!" Xia Xiao didn''t speak, and didn''t even lift her head. As if she had been isolated from the world, she continued to write her own experience. Wang Xia raised her eyebrows. "Look, the eyes of the masses are bright!" Qu Weiwei knew that the people here would not help her. Xia Xiao naturally had to pretend that she didn''t see anything because of Wang Xia''s power. She came forward and wanted to take advantage of Wang Xia''s carelessness to grab the book back. But suddenly someone stretched out her foot and hooked her ankle... Qu Weiwei fell forward out of balance. The sound of "Oh" came, and Qu Weiwei only felt that her forehead had been knocked apart. Sarcastic laughter came, thin and broken, but especially sorry. Such a smile undoubtedly left an indelible pain in Qu Weiwei''s heart and anger. She got up and went up like crazy to grab her own book. Although Wang Xia is strong, she is very flexible. She hides left and right. She just makes Qu Weiwei feel embarrassed and doesn''t get the book. Suddenly There was a sound of the iron door being opened. Then, after a whistle sounded, someone shouted, "what are you doing?" "Qu Weiwei robbed my notes." Wang Xia took the lead in suing. Qu Weiwei''s eyes were scarlet with anger. "Obviously you robbed me... You can see it by looking at the font." Wang Xia looked innocent. "Read? When you''re a police officer, you''re an expert?" She looked at Qu Weiwei with a sneer and said, "let''s talk about who robbed who?" "The report is that Qu Weiwei robbed Wang Xia''s book." "Report, Qu Weiwei robbed Wang Xia..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Everyone agreed that Qu Weiwei robbed Wang Xia''s notes. "You all lie!" Qu Weiwei gnashed her teeth and stared. The policewoman sneered, "everyone lied to exclude you?" She stepped forward and stood in front of Qu Weiwei. "It''s either a fact or your problem!" Chapter 1448 "You''re all together. You can say it anyway!" Qu Weiwei sneered, "a nest of snakes and mice." "What are you talking about?" The female prison police immediately stared and bullied Qu Weiwei, almost next to her. "If you have the ability, just repeat what you just said!" Qu Weiwei looked at the cruelty of the policewoman''s eyes and clenched her hands. She swallowed the words that had rushed to her throat. She knew very well that even if no one explained, there was a tradition of bullying newcomers in prison. What''s more, she doesn''t think Li Yunze won''t explain anything when he wants to know what happened that year The female prison police thought that Qu Weiwei''s arrogant character would lose her reason and confront her under such circumstances. But unexpectedly, she put up with it. "I mean, Wang Xia, they are a group. They work together against me!" Qu Weiwei said firmly. The female prison policeman snorted coldly and looked at Wang Xia. "Wang Xia, who''s the note?" "Mine!" Wang Xia said firmly. The policewoman held out her hand, "give me the book." Wang Xia didn''t want to. She was the eldest sister in the same cell, but she didn''t dare to do it in front of the female prison police. Handed the book to the female prison police, Wang Xia''s eyes timely crossed Qu Weiwei, and she saw a sneer at her eyes. It was obvious that she looked down on her. The policewoman looked at the book, then looked at Wang Xia and said, "Wang Xia, did you write this word? It''s not your experience at first sight..." she said coldly, "I''ll punish you to clean the bathroom alone after everyone washes tonight." Then she handed the book to Qu Weiwei, "some words, remember what your brain is saying, be careful that misfortune comes out of your mouth..." With a cold hum, the policewoman turned and left indifferently. Qu Weiwei answered and looked at Wang Xia proudly, with a mockery in the bottom of her eyes. At the moment, she didn''t realize that her misfortune officially began Everyone except Qu Wei is taking a bath in the bathroom. "What do you want?" Qu Weiwei looked at the crowd with her arms around her chest. "Fuck you!" Wang Xia sneered and motioned to the crowd. Other female criminals immediately came forward and laid their hands on her. Despite Qu Weiwei''s scream, they pressed her to the ground, took the shower and began to water her face. At the same time, some people abnormal touched and twisted her. Screams were heard all the time. Qu Weiwei hissed and exhausted, but she couldn''t escape. Wang Xia didn''t know when she had a bottle of chili sauce in her hand. Her eyes opened with excitement and fell on Qu Weiwei''s face. The water from the shower was mixed with chili sauce. In an instant, it got into Qu Weiwei''s mouth, nostrils... Eyes. The burning pain and spicy feeling made Qu Weiwei feel like she was dying. "Let go of me, let go of me... Cough cough... Let go... Cough cough cough... Let go of me..." "Tut tut!" Wang Xia looked at the embarrassed Qu Weiwei and shook her head, "why is it so disgusting?" Paused, "go and wash her well. It''s really hot eyes." When it comes to "hot eyes", Qu Weiwei feels that her eyes are crazy tingling under the pepper. Just when she didn''t know what Wang Xia meant by "washing", people had been lifted up. The next moment, she saw them dragging her to the toilet "Let go of me, let go of me... Ah..." Qu Weiwei struggled frantically because she was naked. In order to hold her, they pinched her meat one by one. But at the moment, she has no regard for the physical pain, just want to struggle to leave. "Bang" came, followed by Qu Weiwei''s dull pain. Wang Xia kicked Qu Weiwei in the back and just took her back from the toilet Qu Weiwei was habitually lying on the toilet. Before she could leave, the other female criminals came forward and pressed her head into the toilet "Shit, do something!" Wang Xia spit. "I''m proud that I was punished to wash the toilet, right? Then I''ll let you have a good taste of how to ''wash'' the toilet." Xia Xiao calmly packed up her things outside, waiting for the end of the inside, and went in to wash. Qu Weiwei came in, and she didn''t ask. She suggested that she go to find he Yining and kill people with a knife. But what does it matter whether you ask or not? Anyway, it''s the same thing In prison, only those who judge the situation can slowly integrate and not be bullied. Qu Weiwei''s domineering appearance and her words to the female prison police have angered Wang Xia and the female prison police. As a result, she thought of it. Screams and abuse mixed together and came out of the bathroom. In the monitoring room, you can''t see the picture inside, but you can hear the sound. "Is that really all right?" Someone asked. The female prison police who went to patrol the room before glanced indifferently, "what problem can there be, and there will be no human life." "Also..." The man shrugged, then turned off his voice, took the e-book aside and began to pursue the novel. The female prison police looked coldly at the cell where Xia Xiao was the only one, and sneered at him. At that meeting, she deliberately "helped" Qu Weiwei, but it was clear that Wang Xia would not let her go. Qu Weiwei was tossed for more than an hour before Wang Xia let her go. Looking at her limp beside the toilet, she said with a sneer, "people should know themselves." She shook her head, "no matter how beautiful you are outside, you are a prisoner here. Who are you proud of? Bah..." Wang Xia directly spit on Qu Weiwei, "bitch, I thought I was so noble." Qu Weiwei was trembling all over. She had no strength to say anything to Wang Xia. The feeling that she fell to the ground from the sky, and even for a moment, she was inferior to pigs and dogs, made her collapse. "Li Yunze, he Yining..." Qu Weiwei shouted with gnashing teeth. Her eyes pasted by pepper and toilet water could not open, but she could feel her deep hatred. At the moment, what she hates is not Wang Xia. Why Ning and Li Yunze caused her like this! ¡­¡­ He Yining suddenly fought a cold war. He felt fluffy in his heart and immediately felt nervous on the table. "Cold?" Li Yunze said, taking off his windbreaker and putting it on he Yining. "It''s getting late. Go home, huh?" He Yining nodded and walked to the parking lot with Li Yunze The happy mood of one night was lost because of the inexplicable cold war just now. On the way back, he Yining''s mind was a little messy. I don''t know why, his parents'' faces suddenly appeared. "What are you thinking so preoccupied with?" Li Yunze looked sideways at why he Ning. He Yining looked at him, "Li Yunze, I think of my father and mother..." Chapter 1449 Li Yunze knew that he Yining had a burden from uncle he and aunt he. He explored his hand, held his hand into his palm and pinched it. "I have surgery tomorrow and the day after tomorrow, and then the day after tomorrow, let''s go and see uncle and aunt, huh?" Why should I rather smile at the corner of my mouth, "I''m sorry..." Li Yunze smiled, "why do you say sorry to me?" "I was so happy today, but..." he Yining sighed gently. Li Yunze looked at the road, but didn''t let go of he Yining''s hand. He slowly opened his mouth: "originally, he was going to pay a formal visit." he glanced at he Yining. "We''re going to get married. It''s right to meet our parents." He Yining''s originally inexplicable and dull mood dissipated in an instant. She found that Li Yunze was really the best in her life She is sad because of him, happy... Also because of him. ¡­¡­ Two days later, when the sunset sank in the West and dyed the sky with glow, Li Yunze took he Yining''s hand and went up the steps in the cemetery In the hands of two people, a bunch of white stars all over the sky, with serenity and a touch of sadness in the sunset. Li Yunze and he Yining both stood in front of the tombs of he Tianshu and Meng ya. The setting sun pulled their figures long and warm in the autumn wind. "Dad, mom..." he Yining shouted and looked at Li Yunze, "I''ve achieved what I want..." she smiled, looked at the photos of her parents on the tombstone, raised her hand with a ring and said, "I''ve finally caught up with Li Yunze. We''ll get the certificate the day after tomorrow!" Li Yunze held he Yining''s hand and looked deeply at he Tianshu and Meng ya. "Uncle and aunt, I''ve been chasing him for so many years. I''m too proud..." he smiled at he Yining and continued, "I''ll spend the rest of my life being nice to her, so that she can continue to act recklessly like a princess. This is my commitment to you." Why is it that Ning Zhe''s nose is a little sour "Dad, mom, I''ve always lived a strong and happy life..." why Ning said with red eyes, "from small to large, what you instilled in me is positive energy. No matter how many setbacks I encounter, I can continue to move forward... So my dream has finally come true." Li Yunze let go of he Yining''s hand, spread his long arm over her shoulder and pulled her into his arms. "No matter what happens, since I have determined Yining, I will not let go." Li Yunze said seriously, "please rest assured that Yining and I will be fine..." As parents, give their daughter''s hand to a "strange" man. They don''t need your wealth, nor do they need you to be the favored son of heaven... They just hope you can treat their baby well. Li Yunze looked deeply at the photos on the tombstone and told them with firm eyes that his firmness to Yining was neither trying nor playing... He was serious. The sun turns and the stars move. The night in late autumn is very cold, but the moment the sun rises, it will dispel all the coldness and become vibrant. Jin shaosi watched the workers clean up an office building in the vineyard villa area, where he Tianshu used to work. The former owner Xu thought it was unlucky to use the former office location, so he took it as a warehouse. "Yining," Jin shaosi called he Yining, "the sundries in the office are about to be cleaned up. You have to come and have a look after work. Is there anything you want to collect?" "Well, I''ll go after work." Why should I rather answer the voice. "OK." Jin shaosi looked around, "I won''t move here until you see what you need, and then let someone clean it up." Why should I rather answer the voice. After hanging up, Jin Shao Si looked at the office where the dust was going to dissipate, and his eyes gradually grew deeper. Even in the past ten years, standing here, I can still remember the scene when the master and everyone studied the red wine fermentation procedure. "Boss, all the sundries have been removed, and the rest..." a worker came and asked. "First of all," Mr. Jin recalled, "clean up the sanitation and wait until Yining comes back to see if there is anything to take away." "OK." Mr. Jin took back his sight and left the office building first. Why would you rather leave work? After telling Li Yunze to go back to the vineyard, he took a taxi and left the hospital When we arrived at the vineyard, the workers were just having a barbecue outside. Jin shaosi asked he Yining to come and eat first. Tan Zhonglang saw why Ning came and went to the other side silently. "A Lang..." why Ning frowned slightly and looked at Mr. Jin. "Some things should be put down by yourself." Jin shaosi handed a bunch of crispy bones to he Yining. "Everyone has everyone''s persistence. No matter in the eyes of outsiders, that persistence is good or bad." "I don''t blame Alan." He Ning sighed, "I''m just worried about him." "Qu Weiwei has been in prison for three years, hoping to let go of the past..." Jin shaosi didn''t tell he Yining more about things in prison. "Alan must be waiting for her, for fear that she won''t cherish it." He Yining was silent and didn''t say this again. As she ate, she wondered whether to give Jin shaosi that when she got the official license plate tomorrow, she would go to get the license with Li Yunze, and then wait until the winter vacation and the wedding one by one. She felt a little cruel, but she seemed to have to say it again. "Ace..." "Yes!" Why did Ning zhe lower the corner of her mouth, "that..." she looked at Jin shaosi, "I''m going to get the certificate with Li Yunze tomorrow." Jin shaosi quietly looked at he Yining. After a long time, his mouth was filled with some astringency and loss, but it made people feel a warm smile, "Yining, you finally caught up with him... Although I''m very sad, I still wish you and him white head." He Yining looked at Jin shaosi with a sour nose, "ah Si, I''m sorry... I failed you." Jin shaosi smiled, "why fail to live up to him if he has not been entrusted?" He sighed softly, "from beginning to end, I know you only have Li Yunze in your heart, and you have never given me fantasy, have you?!" He Yining has a heavy heart. Having said that, how can you say it doesn''t matter if there is such a man with no regrets around you?! "I''ll go to Dad''s office..." Jin shaosi nodded and didn''t go with him Yining. No one will be hurt, and Jin shaosi is naturally not a steel heart... He needs to give himself some time to calm down. Why should I rather stand in the office where the air is still full of dust even if it has been cleaned? After looking around, the corners of my mouth slightly raised a shallow smile. Xu is the reason why he went to see his father and mother with Li Yunze yesterday. He doesn''t have such a big burden in his heart at the moment. Father and mother want her to be happy. She should walk forward with a smile, shouldn''t she? Thinking, why Ning has come to the front of a picture. This is my father''s favorite painting. I won''t let others touch it at any time. Every time the dust is wiped by myself Why Ning''s hand gently touched the picture frame, his sight turned around and found that it was a little crooked. She raised her hand to straighten the frame One of the buckles that can be dropped didn''t get stuck, but the other buckles were lost. "Hoo..." he Yining said nothing to himself. He simply took down the picture frame and thought to hang it up when Jin shaosi came. Suddenly Why Ning''s sight stagnated and looked at the safe inlaid on the wall. "Why did dad get a safe in the wall?!" Chapter 1450 He Yining leaned the painting to one side first, curiously walked over and frowned. He couldn''t figure out why his father embedded a safe on the wall Even, block it with a picture. He Yining twisted her eyebrows and tried to pull. It was obvious how childish her movements were at the moment. "No wonder dad didn''t let anyone move this painting..." why did Ning Nan say, "are you afraid that the safe will be seen?!" Why Ning sighed and thought about the password on it She tried several times, but none of them succeeded. Whether it''s mom''s birthday, Dad''s birthday, her birthday, Dad''s and mom''s wedding anniversary, and the days you can think of, why would you rather try it again, but none of them can unlock it. "How stupid!" Why rather scold yourself. If the password set by dad is so easy to guess, put the safe in such a hidden place where no one will find it, isn''t it unnecessary?! Why Ning''s brain is running, thinking about the password that he Tianshu may set After thinking for a few, I couldn''t open it. Why should Ning''s eyebrows be tighter and tighter. "What is it..." He Yining thought hard and couldn''t help looking around. The study is still that study, and even the main furnishings have not been moved. It was used as a warehouse before. Except for some sundries stacked here, nothing has changed. He Yining walked to he Tianshu''s desk and gently scratched the desktop that had been left for years. What suddenly occurred to him in his mind His eyes brightened in an instant. Why would he rather suddenly look at the place of the safe. Once, she once seemed to hear her father say a series of numbers. Could it be that the number mentioned is actually the password of the safe? Why Ning suddenly stood up and hurried to the safe. He kept arranging and combining according to those numbers When the sound of "click" came, why would you rather have a surprise in your eyes. She slowly opened the door of the safe. She didn''t know whether it was because she was going to discover any secret or how. She swallowed it uncontrollably. Open What pours on the face is a turbid air with the smell of desiccant. Why should Ning tilt his head and cough and frown slightly. She fanned her eyes and saw that there were only a few thick notebooks in the safe. "What is this?" Why did you rather Mur and take out the top book. Open "Record the growth of Yining baby and give me baby''s wedding gift... Five!" He Yining looked at the words of he Tianshu on the title page and his eyes suddenly turned red. Is this fate? Tomorrow she will get the certificate with Li Yunze. Today she found the safe and got the gift Why would you rather suck your nose than turn the dense water mist from the fundus of your eyes into tears. She gently crossed the notes left by he Tianshu with her fingers and looked at the slightly yellowing paper. She felt warm and sour in her heart. He Yining flipped the page. Although she had a hunch that her father was recording her growth, she could see that between the lines, when the words from her father''s love, her heart fluctuated with the log. ¡ª¡ªAnd baby under the vine, tell her about Barbera, Brunello, Cabernet Sauvignon, Camry and other grape varieties. My daughter is not like my hobby at all. She is a little lost! ¡ª¡ªYining told me today that she secretly kissed the boy Li Yunze. At that moment, I looked at my daughter''s happy appearance, but I was a little unhappy. Hey, I won''t admit it. I''m jealous. I''m jealous of Li Yunze! ¡ª¡ªXiaoya told me today that if she could give Yining a sister or brother, they would not be afraid of Yining''s loneliness if they left in the future. I told Xiaoya that as long as we persist until Yining can catch up with the boy Li Yunze, there will be nothing to worry about. Although Li Yunze is very proud and charming. He is like 25bawan, but I know that he is devoted. As long as Yining can catch up, I can let go and give my baby daughter to him. He Yining saw here, and his eyes were very red. "Dad, you are really the clearest father in the world. You know me and him..." Why would you rather suck your nose and continue to look at the growth record. ¡ª¡ªIt''s said that my daughter is my father''s intimate little cotton padded jacket. It''s true. Think about he Tianshu''s whole life. The greatest happiness is to meet Meng Ya and sympathize with her. Because I like planting grapes and making wine, I work together in the morning and dusk. And the happiest thing is that she gave birth to a beautiful and lovely daughter... I have nothing to ask for, just hope to be happy and peaceful all my life! He Yining turned page by page, but gradually, from the log written every day, it became blank for a long time. "Huh?!" He Yining frowned suspiciously and sent the book to his eyes. Only then did he find that the book had been neatly torn off several pages. "How could it be torn off?!" Why do you whisper and continue to turn. There are records later, but on and off ¡ª¡ªSome things happened. Although I didn''t think I could hide them all the time, I wish it was just a dream. ¡ª¡ªYining came back today and told me that she fell out with Weiwei because of the boy Li Yunze. In fact, I have long found that Weiwei has some unspeakable concerns about Li Yunze. However, even if Yining is my daughter, I can''t deny others the right to pursue love because of selfishness. Besides, I hope Li Yunze will refuse Yining more firmly. In this way, Yining may be happier. He Yining resisted the sudden turn of the painting style, but she could understand her father. After all, after chasing for so many years without results, my father will love her. ¡ª¡ªThese days, I often have some nightmares. I''m afraid of what Yining finds or what Li Yunze knows?! Seeing that Yining is more and more persistent to Li Yunze and does not shrink back because there is no hope at all, I am more and more afraid... Afraid that my baby will be hurt! ¡ª¡ªI know I should destroy something, but sometimes people are strange and always hesitate on major choices. On the one hand, I''m afraid of what Yining knows. On the other hand, I''m afraid of Yining''s persistence without knowing anything. Finally, when the truth is revealed, she will be more painful. ¡ª¡ªXiaoya told me that our parents bear the pain and guilt. We should make Yining happy, but can we really achieve all this? He Yining''s breathing is getting heavier and heavier. It''s a strong sense of uneasiness invading the nerve! What is it that makes the log behind dad more and more restless? What is it that they are so afraid that she knows?! He Yining couldn''t wait to turn back with doubts Chapter 1451 Turning page by page, the anxiety under anxiety and anxiety is completely reflected in the text. Even, the back font began to be scrawled, obviously showing the writer''s mood. It was impossible to be calm at all. Even, it seemed as if something had haunted the mind. ¡ª¡ªToday, I went to the cemetery and looked at the picture. It was so young and full of light, but at this moment, it could only be rubbed on the tombstone in the black-and-white photos, standing in the wind and no longer popular. This feeling is like cutting with a knife! I repented, but every time I repented, I didn''t reduce my guilt. I just wanted to cover up more powerless remorse and helplessness. He Yining''s breath began to rush gradually, and her hands began to tremble and dared not continue to turn down. However, there are some things you can''t face if you''re not afraid. Often you know you shouldn''t continue. Continuing will bring you unbearable consequences, but you still can''t stop your behavior. Turn the page and it is blank. There are traces of paper torn off in the middle. He Yining only felt that her breathing was blocked. The suffocation feeling under the ups and downs of her mood made her lean against the wall. Swallowing again, he Yining continued to turn down. The blank of several pages made people''s mood more and more depressed. After turning a few more pages, I finally had words again. ¡ª¡ªYining, I''m sorry. The wedding gift that dad was going to give you should be sealed. I don''t know if you will find out. Even, I don''t know if you will come together with Li Yunze. I just hope that all the bad things will be borne by my father, and you can go on happily. For Li Yunze... You are lucky to get it; I''m lucky to lose it! He Yining''s eyebrows have frowned and frowned together. The feeling of overturning rivers and seas is rolling in his chest, as if to break out of the cavity. What the hell is it? What makes dad so miserable? What is it, as if dad didn''t want her to know?! He Yining continued to turn, but after that text, there were many pages without any handwriting. He Yining got up, looked at the several books still in it, put the "fifth" back in the safe, took the others and began to look through them, trying to find some clues. However, the previous records are basically about her from childhood to adulthood. In addition to the concerns from her parents about her growth, they are full of hope and beauty. ¡­¡­ Jin shaosi looked at the time and saw that he Yining had gone to the office for almost an hour and didn''t come back. He frowned slightly. ¡°Boss£¡¡± When Lu fan saw Jin shaosi get up, he also got up. "I''ll go and see Yining," Jin shaosi glanced at Tan Zhonglang sitting on the ridge. "Pay attention to Alan." Lu Fan nodded, "I understand." "Yes." Jin shaosi walked slowly into the office building. He was a little worried about Yining, afraid that she would be hurt. However, he also knew that Yining needed independent space to commemorate his previous memory. Tomorrow she will get the certificate with Li Yunze. Only by letting her put down her hidden guilt about the accident of her master and wife can she be really happy. And he also believes that Yining can put down the past and move forward bravely After all, she is such an Yining, isn''t she?! When Jin shaosi was halfway there, his mobile phone shook in his pocket. He took it out and saw that it was Li Yunze. He took it up with a sneer at the corner of his mouth, "what''s the matter?" "Is Yining ready?" Li Yunze asked, "well, I''ll go and pick her up." "Li Yunze, are you so worried?" Jin shaosi snorted coldly. "No," said Li Yunze in a calm voice, "I just want to pick her up and go home with her. After I go to get the official license with her tomorrow, I will go directly to the Civil Affairs Bureau." "Li Yunze, don''t you think it''s heartbreaking for you to say so to me?" "Oh, really?" Li Yunze slightly raised his eyebrows, "I''m sorry." Jin shaosi stopped slowly and looked at the bright office building ahead. His eyes gradually deepened. "As for me, I advise you not to bully people too much, otherwise, I''m not sure I''ll disappear with Yining today..." Li Yunze lowered his eyes and smiled, "Jin shaosi, you can''t say such capricious words." The ridicule under the teasing made Jin shaosi feel a little uncomfortable. He felt speechless when his rival did this. No wonder Li Yunze didn''t think his words were persuasive at all. "People are sometimes wayward." Jin shaosi smiled. "Once he was willful, he might have done something he wouldn''t normally do." Li Yunze was stunned and frowned slightly. He couldn''t bear to refute Jin shaosi''s words. He knew very well that if it weren''t for Jin shaosi''s help, he might not deal with some things so quickly, nor would he be together with Yining so smoothly. Between men, there is no need to say thank you. Many things don''t need too many words. "Have time for a drink?" Li Yunze said, "something needs to be solved in a man''s way." Jin shaosi''s eyes were deep and didn''t speak. Just after a while, he dropped his hand and hung up the phone He never wanted to help Li Yunze, but for Yining. Naturally, Li Yunze is also clear about his ideas. Jin shaosi sighed deeply, walked up to the office building ¡­¡­ He Yining wrung her eyebrow and took out the last log. She didn''t hope to find the secret mentioned in the fifth book. Dad didn''t seem to want her to know. In that case, how could he leave a trace? However, with the turning, the uneasiness in her heart seemed to be expanding exponentially, and what''s more, it was like an obsession blocking her heart. Clearly know that she should not continue, but it seems that something is pulling her, so she can only continue. Suddenly Something in the book fell to the ground. Why should I be stunned? When I closed the book, I squatted down to pick it up. It was torn from the book and folded in half. He Yining doesn''t have to think about it. He knows it''s the paper in the fifth. I swallowed involuntarily. Why should I rather breathe short because of tension. She opened it slowly She didn''t know whether she was too nervous or because of subconscious fear. When the paper was opened, she subconsciously closed her eyes. When there was darkness in front of him, he Yining suddenly felt a little funny. Take a deep breath, slowly open your eyes, drop your eyes, and your sight falls on the paper He Yining looked at it line by line. When she saw the back, she fell into an indescribable imprisonment, and her whole eyes were full of resistance. Even the hand holding the paper began to tremble. Until She saw the last page. She looked at the words behind her. Her breath was completely disordered, and her whole face was split with fear. "Ah --" Chapter 1452 "Ah --" "Ah --" The sharp cry came one by one, showing the collapse under despair, as if the whole world was about to collapse. "Ah -- ah --" Her eyes were covered with tears of despair, and she cried out in a moment. As soon as Jin shaosi got to the second floor, his steps were stopped by the sudden cry. He suddenly reacted and ran to the office "Yining, what''s the matter?" Jin shaosi''s voice blurted out the moment he flashed into the office. "Ah -- ah --" He Yining couldn''t hear Jin shaosi''s voice at all. She covered her ears and kept shouting. Tears spilled out, but for a moment, the whole face was covered with tears. "Yining, Yining..." Jin shaosi hurried forward and held him. His body was evacuated because of the cry of collapse. He Yining, who was about to falter, "Yining?!" Seeing that he Yining couldn''t get out of his sad mood, Jin shaosi glanced across the safe embedded in the wall. First, he frowned and couldn''t care about anything else. He took he Yining into his arms and held him tightly, trying to calm her down. However, he Yining couldn''t be stable at all. He kept crying and shouting, as if he wanted to give up his general despair completely. Jin shaosi''s eyes are a little red. He has never seen such Yining. It was a kind of despair that he could feel her pain without asking anything, and that he could not love. "Yining, there''s nothing that doesn''t go in the past, there''s nothing!" Jin shaosi kept comforting, "darling, there''s nothing that can beat our strong Yining, no!" "Ah --" He Yining cried and became more and more desperate. She screamed as hard as she could, allowing her voice to become hoarse... Powerless in such a cry. I don''t know why Yining''s whole body is weak and has no ability to support. If Jin shaosi didn''t hold her, I''m afraid she would have fallen to the ground. The paper originally held in his hand fell to the ground. Jin shaosi looked at it and estimated that the reason was on those pieces of paper. He took he Yining to the sofa and sat down. He looked at he Yining, who was empty crying and could not cry out because of his hoarse voice. His eyes were full of heartache. Looking back at the paper that fell on the ground, Jin shaosi looked anxiously at why he Ning, got up to pick it up, and his eyes drooped with the trend On it is the handwriting of he Tianshu. Jin shaosi looked at he Yining and then began to read the above words When he finished reading, Jin shaosi''s pupil suddenly widened because of surprise. He suddenly raised his eyes and looked at the stunned he Yining. Complex emotions emerged in his eyes. I feel guilty. He shouldn''t have let Yining come here alone. Angry, he shouldn''t suddenly clean up here and want to restore everything here. Even if the master is gone, the office can return to its former appearance. If he comes back, he can have a thought. What''s more, he knew that the painting was the master''s favorite. Why didn''t he take it down and wipe it in the afternoon? Perhaps, if he found out first, Yining would not see what was inside. All emotions turned into heartache in the end. Jin shaosi took one step, one step, and his legs walked like lead. Why should he Ning He squatted down in front of her and took her into his arms again. There was nothing to say. He knew that at the moment, it was useless to say anything. Yining, what can I do to make you not sad? How can I make you think it didn''t happen? Jin shaosi scarlet his eyes. His heart was pumping. The whole person closed his eyes because of the sadness under the pain. Originally, this is what he and Li Yunze have been checking again. So The master and his wife were so eager to chase Yining. It was because someone with a heart took advantage of what others didn''t know that a tragic car accident occurred. Jin shaosi slightly clenched his hands with those pages of paper, and his mouth became a straight line. How cruel is such a thing to Yining? Mingming, she will get the certificate with Li Yunze tomorrow. Obviously, her happiness is only one step away But this step has become the biggest distance between heaven and earth. Tears, burning cheeks, why rather seems to have been numb. She looked down at the front, her eyes full of red blood because she cried for too long. "Ha ha..." why would you rather smile? It''s more ugly than crying. "Ace, I''m going to marry Li Yunze tomorrow, tomorrow!" "Yes." Jin shaosi answered sadly. "It''s impossible, it''s impossible..." he Yining laughed and cried. "The dream of this life is impossible." Jin shaosi''s eyebrows have been tied. The corners of his mouth are moving back and forth, but he doesn''t know how to comfort him. "It turned out that everything was me..." he Yining was different from the sharp cry at that time. At this moment, she began to laugh. "I caused it all, it''s all me!" "Yining..." Jin shaosi let go of he Yining. He gently shook her body and asked her to look into his eyes. "Look at me... All this is just an accident. You don''t know the consequences!" "I don''t know, can I erase it?" He Yining trembled and cried, "ah Si, cause and effect reincarnation, my happiness will never happen again, never again." "Yining, no one knows about it. We don''t know anyone, okay?" Jin shaosi said in a soft voice, "I''ll destroy it. Let it rot in my stomach, okay?" "Ace, destroyed, it also exists!" Why Ning closed his eyes in despair, and big tears were squeezed out of his eyes, "hehe, hehe, it turned out that everything is me!" Jin shaosi''s breath became short. He bit his teeth, got up suddenly, and took out his lighter. With the sound of "Dang", the paper was stained with flames and lit up. Jin shaosi looked at the pages and said, "I''ve destroyed things. Yining, today you can be sad, and even cry out all your sadness..." his eyes were burning. "Tomorrow, you continue your original path and live!" He Yining looked at Jin shaosi dimly with tearful eyes, and his lips kept trembling. Seeing that there was still a trace of extravagant hope in the bottom of Yining''s eyes, he squatted down again, looked at her gently, and tried to ask her firmly: "Yining, you tell me you can do it... Right? You want to be with Li Yunze so much, you can do it, can''t you?!" Chapter 1453 He Yining looked at Jin shaosi dimly with tearful eyes. The smile from the corners of his mouth was bigger and bigger, but it was more and more sad and frightening. "Can I do it?" Why Ning asked hoarsely, "ace, tell me, how can I do it?" Jin shaosi''s lips moved and wanted to say forget, but he found that it was difficult for him to even say so. How can he forget?! "Yining..." Jin shaosi looked at he Yining sadly. Why should I turn my head and let the tears flow out all the time, as if it could not be finished. "All along, I thought the obstacle between me and Li Yunze was that I couldn''t catch up with him." He Yining choked and said, "later, I spent a night with him. I felt that even if I couldn''t be together, at least I ended my life chasing him." Why rather bite his lip, "but he said to try, and this try, let me finally complete the biggest chase in my life." She said, looking at Jin shaosi, "ah Si, when I know that the car accident between my mother and father may have happened because I went after Li Yunze, do you know how much strength I have to use to not think about it?" Sad words gouged out and cut Jin shaosi''s heart word by word, and the pain was drenched with blood. "I think I don''t want to feel guilty. I don''t want to stop my life because of guilt." Why rather gently fan your eyes, tears will roll down, "my father and mother will not want to see me like that. They want me to be happy. They know better than anyone that my happiness is Li Yunze." Jin shaosi gently grasped he Yining''s hand and felt her trembling all over her body. Her eyebrows were frowning and tightening. "But now?" He Yining laughed and sighed, "how can I convince myself?" Jin shaosi held he Yining''s hand tightly and tried to give her some firmness. "Ace, do you know?" Why Ning couldn''t stop crying and said, "Chen Yu, Chen Yu didn''t do anything, just because her surname was Chen, so there were no children of Jinxi and no happiness of Jinxi..." Jin shaosi frowned slightly. He didn''t know how this matter was related to Chen Yu again. But on second thought, Jin shaosi seemed to have guessed something "Li Yunze clearly told me that although he wanted Jinxi to be happy, he would not forgive anything related to the death of brother Yunhao." He Yining''s sadness at the bottom of his eyes spread again and superimposed together, which can''t describe the kind of pain. "Chen Yu, he won''t forgive. What about me?" He Yining suddenly went crazy. He threw away shaosi Jin''s hand and suddenly stood up. His hands kept poking himself in the chest. He shouted hoarsely: "I am the person who caused the event. If it weren''t for me, no one would know the research of Brother Yun Hao, no one would know the process and the research that can make drugs. It''s all me..." Jin shaosi stood up slowly. Even though he had thousands of words at the moment, he knew clearly that he had no way to comfort he Yining. "I accidentally got the paper for research and calculation. It''s me, it''s me!" He Yining sneered, which was a hatred of himself to the extreme. When proposing marriage, under the statue of Hippocrates, Li Yunze said to her: practicing medicine is only for curing diseases. Don''t give the poison to anyone and never instruct anyone to use it. That''s Li Yunze''s persistence, but also brother Yunhao''s persistence Even if he committed suicide, he didn''t give his research to those who made drugs! She took the paper she wrote during her research and even fell into the hands of evil people "Ace, Li Yunze and I are out of the question!" He Yining beat the position of his heart in pain, and exerted great force every time. "Yining!" Jin shaosi came forward to stop he Yining. He Yining suddenly retreated back. Such pain is not pain at all for her at the moment. "Can you imagine what would happen when Li Yunze knew that I had caused all the causes...?" Why Ning shook his hand, stamped his feet, bent down and cried, "can you imagine that he knew that I took Brother Yun Hao''s research manuscript because I went to him? What would he do?" "Sobbing..." why should Ning cry? He is out of breath. "He will hate not only me, but also himself!" "If I hadn''t chased her, those things wouldn''t have happened!" "If it weren''t for me, my aunt wouldn''t die, and brother Yunhao wouldn''t commit suicide..." "If it weren''t for me, Jinxi wouldn''t have miscarriage, let alone pain!" "I caused all this --" Why rather roar, slowly squat on the ground, holding his knees and trying to cry. Her pain, she will bring more pain to Li Yunze. ¡­¡­ "Yunze, you should control the research direction." The professor turned off the computer and said, "if there is a breakthrough this time, your little thought will pay off." Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "Professor, what do you say? It seems that I joined the research group just to think carefully?!" "I''m not sure." The professor smiled, "you boy, when you don''t care, you let us bystanders look at it indifferently and think it''s too much. But if you care, according to the current students, it''s the unbridled distribution of dog food." "The professor is quite fashionable." Li Yunze laughed. The professor was amused by Li Yunze. He looked at the time, "OK, it''s too late. Go back early... Drive carefully." "I know." Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "There will be a family soon. We must take care of it." "You boy..." the professor smiled, shook his head and patted Li Yunze''s arm. Li Yunze said goodbye to the professor and left. While walking to the parking lot, he took out his mobile phone and wanted to call he Yining to pick her up. The number hasn''t been dialed yet. A text message arrived. Jin shaosi: Yining was a little sad and slept in the vineyard. Li Yunze frowned slightly and dialed Jin shaosi''s phone He Yining has changed from crying to sobbing. Jin shaosi glanced and called and said, "Li Yunze''s phone." Why Ning looked at Jin shaosi with red and swollen eyes. Many emotions flashed across his eyes, and finally turned into fear under resistance. With a deep sigh, Jin shaosi got up and answered the phone as he went out. "Is Yining all right?" Li Yunze asked. Mr. Jin looked back and said, "there must be something in her mind when sorting out the relics..." she paused. "She went back to the house where they lived before, lay down by the bed and fell asleep." Li Yunze opened the door and got on the bus, "let me go and see her..." Chapter 1454 Jin shaosi frowned slightly, "I suggest not." "Huh?" Li Yunze twisted his eyebrows suspiciously. Jin shaosi said indifferently: "Li Yunze, anyway, the accident of the master and wife was more or less due to Yining..." his eyes gradually sank. "Yining packed up their relics and touched the scene. Do you think it''s appropriate for you to come here?" Li Yunze frowned and looked at the swaying willow branches outside the car, gently sighed, "Jin shaosi, how do I think you did it on purpose?" "Huh?!" "I and Yin tomorrow will get the card, and you make complaints about Uncle Ho''s stuff today..." Li Yunze''s dissatisfied Tucao, "it''s clear to me that I''m not happy." "Then you''ll think I''m not happy for you!" Jin shaosi said indifferently, "if you can pierce my heart, I can''t give you eye medicine?!" "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth, "I''ve never seen such a careful man like you." "Do I want generous blessings?" Jin shaosi''s voice was colder. "My blessing is only for Yining!" The words fell. Instead of giving Li Yunze a chance to speak, Jin shaosi hung up directly. Listening to the "beep beep" hanging up sound from the mobile phone, Li Yunze screwed off his eyebrows again. I don''t know what''s going on. He thinks something''s wrong, but he can''t say what''s wrong at the moment. With a sigh of relief, Li Yunze sent a text message to he Yining: Jin shaosi said you were asleep, so I won''t go to pick you up. Yining, I will be by your side, always! He Yining fell asleep and naturally no one replied to him. After Li Ning left the villa, Li Ning still didn''t reply. As soon as I entered the room, I saw Li Jiyuan turning over the photo album on the sofa. "Yunze?!" Li Ze didn''t want to come back, but Li Ze didn''t want to come back. Li Yunze walked over and sat down next to Li Jiyuan. His eyes fell on the album. Li Yunhao is in every photo in the album. Either alone, or with friends and family. "Dad..." Li Yunze''s Adam''s apple rolled down. Li Jiyuan sighed heavily, and his eyes were red. "After so many years, Yun Hao seemed to have not left. I often dream of him as a young man, gentle, proud... Filial." Li Yunze was silent, and there was pain in the fundus of his eyes. "Never, I don''t want to mention Yunhao in front of you and Jinxi..." Li Jiyuan looked at Li Yunze. "Yunze, dad wants to ask you whether you are good, but he''s afraid." "Dad, we''re not good!" Li Yunze did not hide, because there is no need to hide the current situation. "Jinxi is not good, I also......" Li Yunze took a deep breath, "I''m not very good either." However, everyone tacitly understood that no one mentioned it, as if it were all very good. As doctors, they know better than anyone that the apparent outbreak will pass quickly. And the pain hidden in the heart and covered up with peace can not be smoothed. Li Jiyuan reddened his eyes, with heartache and guilt. "Dad," Li Yunze leaned slowly on the sofa, "do you think Jinxi and Chen Yu are still possible?" "If you are Jinxi, do you think it is possible?" Li Jiyuan did not answer the question. Li Yunze was silent for a while before shaking his head. "No..." he laughed at himself, "how can the obstacle in his heart pass? There''s no way..." The death of relatives may not be so terrible. The terrible thing is to commit suicide in front of you! It''s a nightmare. No one can just let it go No one, no! Li Jiyuan sighed deeply. For Li Jinxi and Chen Yu, he now takes the happiness of his daughter as the primary condition. As long as Jin Xi accepts Chen Yu, he can also accept it. After all, Chen Yu didn''t often stay in the Chen family from childhood to adulthood. He just shed the blood of the Chen family. "Dad, the Chen family is basically finished this time." Li Yunze''s eyes narrowed slightly, "although it doesn''t relieve Qi, it can be regarded as revenge in the end." Because of Beichen, Shi Shaoqin used the Chen family to replace the dead ghost. Is this a bad retribution?! People are always responsible for what they do, no matter who they are! "Alas..." Li Jiyuan sighed and looked at Li Yunhao in a white coat. His eyes were deep. "It''s OK for the Chen family to pour, and some things can be taken out." Li Yunze looked at Li Jiyuan and wrung his eyebrows. "Dad means... To take out the eldest brother''s research?" "It''s the result of several years spent by Yun Hao, which will play a great role in the progress of the medical community... It''s a pity to bury it." Li Jiyuan said, "I want to use that research to establish a medical academic association, which will become a direction in the future." Li Yunze frowned, "but..." "I know what you''re worried about?" Li Jiyuan closed the album, "are you afraid that if the Chen family falls down, others will come out." Li Yunze didn''t speak. "Therefore, I will set up an academic research institute in the name of commemorating your big brother. You will be the principal. The external news is naturally that you want to promote promising students in medical school and make contributions to the medical community." "Obviously, there are other research topics, but actually they will materialize the research of big brother?!" Li Yunze spoke. Li Jiyuan nodded. "It''s Yunhao''s hard work. I can''t bear to be published." "I thought that the research had disappeared with the big brother''s departure..." Li Yunze said. "At first, the manuscript was only the first draft. Later, he would destroy the calculus manuscript every time he improved it. It was all based on his memory... How could it happen?" Li Jiyuan patted Li Yunze on the shoulder, "when it''s time to appear, it will naturally appear... This matter will also wait for me to think about the feasibility." Li Yunze nodded. "By the way, why did you come back suddenly?" Li Jiyuan asked. Li Yunze smiled, "Dad, if I told you that I would go to get the certificate with Yining tomorrow, would you think it was a fantasy?" "No." Li Jiyuan smiled, "sooner or later you will be Yining." "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth, "why?" "You''re slow in your bones. You need a girl to chase you down." Li Jiyuan said with a smile, "Yining just complements you. Don''t tell me. If Yining hadn''t done something that makes people laugh and cry when he was a child, I''m afraid you would have recognized your heart." "..." Li Yunze twitched again. Naturally, he knew what Li Jiyuan said. Once, he Yining didn''t stand firm, and he just walked in front. She habitually wanted to catch him. Who knows, when the position deviated a little, she took off his sweatpants At that time, because it was just a young age, natural gas was not good. If you put it now, it is estimated that he has a thick skin and directly gave he Yining to the Dharma on the spot. "When are you going to have the wedding?" Li Jiyuan asked. Chapter 1455 "Get the certificate tomorrow first," Li Yunze thought, but he still didn''t say one by one for the time being. "There was a wedding about years ago." "That''s OK. There''s still some time to prepare for the wedding..." Li Jiyuan nodded. "Just in time, your wedding also gives Jinxi a break." Li Yunze smiled and nodded, thinking that he Yining and he Yining will become legally inseparable husband and wife tomorrow. It is a sacred feeling, not a sense of stability that can be explained by "I love you". "It''s getting late. Stay here at night." Li Jiyuan looked at the time. "Ah Qiao just stewed the soup. Have a drink later." "OK." Li Yunze answered, "I''ll go up and wash it first." "Yes." Li Jiyuan watched Li Yunze leave and opened the album again. He casually took out a photo and looked at Li Yunhao''s brilliant and confident smile for a long time. Then he slowly turned over the photo and his eyes fell on the words behind Who would have thought that Yun Hao''s research would be broken down and written behind the photo after a few pages of the first draft were lost? Even if it is placed in the most obvious place, I''m afraid no one will be bored to take out photos to see At least, no one has found out for so many years, haven''t they?! ¡­¡­ Why rather cry too tired, and finally directly blocked the cry in one breath and fainted. Jin shaosi took her to the bedroom she had reserved for her. Looking at her sobbing in her sleep, her eyes were completely distressed. Turning around and twisting the hot towel, Jin shaosi gently wiped the tears on he Yining''s face, sighed at her and said, "Yining, if this is the pain you can''t let go of in your life, then I''ll help you." The soft voice echoed in the bedroom, gently floating, deeply distressed. Jin shaosi never regretted, but he used all his regrets in his life today. In my mind, it''s all the helplessness under he Tianshu''s handwriting. It carries too much, too much. ¡ª¡ªLi Yunhao''s death is not only the sorrow of the medical community, but also the pain of the Li family. Yining accompanied Li Yunze day and night after Li Yunhao committed suicide. No one knows how deep Yining''s company is. She followed silently during the day and accompanied quietly under Li Yunze''s window at night. I love my daughter, but I never stop it. But the truth came unprepared, so people don''t know how to face it. Who would have thought that the disaster of the Li family would be caused by the pages that Yining brought back with him? Who could have thought that after Yining brought it back, he thought it was my calculation of brewing proportion data, which was mixed in my file, so that I passed it to the interested people in the end without knowing it? Jin shaosi raised his hand and gently pointed his belly across he Yining''s cheek, and his eyes gradually deepened No one would know that such a great tragedy was caused by unconscious actions. "Yining, you won''t forgive yourself in this life, will you?" Jin shaosi narrowed his eyes gently. "Yining, who is happy and courageous, can''t go back... Can he?" He Yining''s sob was the only one who answered Jin shaosi. Jin shaosi closed his eyes and covered the pain. "Yining," Jin shaosi''s voice trembled slightly, "since you are afraid that he knows, let him hate you!" He slowly opened his eyes, some scarlet at the bottom of his eyes, "can''t love, maybe... Only hate can make you feel better!" ¡­¡­ Early in the morning, in the fog. At night, I don''t know when there was a light rain, which made the cold air colder, as if the footsteps of winter had come quietly. Why should Ning''s "um" cry, she only felt that she had a splitting headache and her eyes were dry and could not open, just like her eyelids weighed a thousand kilograms. After a while, she tried to open her eyes, but it was only a gap. Because of crying for too long, the whole eyelid is swollen like a goldfish eye. "Wake up?!" Jin shaosi came in at the right time. He Yining looked at him in silence. Without the sharp edge of last night, at the moment, her silence makes people feel empty. Jin shaosi sat down beside the bed. "It''s a little cold outside. I''ll have someone send you clothes to change..." paused. "I''ll get what I want to eat!" "I......" he Yining wanted to speak, but his hoarse voice couldn''t be heard. "Cook some porridge!" Jin shaosi said, "you wash first." He Yining nodded silently and watched Jin shaosi go out before he got up with his heavy and tired body. The hot water from the shower washed away the body. Why did you cry again. I don''t know how long it took until Jin shaosi knocked on the door outside, he Yining''s thoughts came back. "Yining?!" He Yining didn''t speak, just turned off the shower. Seeing that there was no sound, Jin shaosi sighed and said, "I''ll wait for you downstairs..." He Yining didn''t make a sound, but silently wiped his body, changed his clothes and went downstairs. Looking at why Ning Honghong''s eyes, Jin shaosi knew that she had cried again, but he didn''t expose it. "I asked you for leave," Jin shaosi said. "I''ll explain the company''s affairs. I''ll take you out for a rest on the plane at three o''clock in the afternoon." He Yining did not refute, but said in a dry voice, "I want to see my father and mother later." "OK," Jin shaosi answered, "let Lu Fan take you there." "Yes." ¡­¡­ When Li Yunze came to the vineyard to pick up he Yining, the workers said she left with Jin shaosi. With a slight frown, he dialed he Yining, but he couldn''t get through. When Jin Yining called the hospital in a hurry, he had to call him back. By the time I''m finished, it''s already more than ten o''clock. "Li Shao, this is..." yanmiao came with a case. "Let Dr. Feng deal with it!" Li Yunze kept walking to the elevator and dialed he Yining while walking. Has been unable to connect When people are unknown, they like to think nonsense. Li Yunze inexplicably thought of what Jin shaosi said last night "People are sometimes wayward. Once they are wayward, they will do something they usually don''t do." "Jin shaosi won''t ''hide'' Yining because of his willfulness?!" Li Yunze murmured and thought his idea was ridiculous. But although it was ridiculous, he still dialed Jin shaosi''s phone, but no one answered. Li Yunze was a little flustered. He found the number and dialed the examination office of the Wei and Family Planning Commission. "I''m Li Yunze... Help me find out why Ning came to get the certificate?" "He Yining... Not yet!" "OK, I see." Li Yunze said thanks and hung up the phone. He was already in the car. Sitting in the car, Li Yunze twisted his eyebrows and looked at the front. He felt uneasy and began to spread. It was an inexplicable feeling, as if something was slowly pulling away. "Will you go to the cemetery?" Li Yunze thought and started the car to drive to the cemetery. Chapter 1456 The cold wind was not dispersed by the sunshine. The pine trees in the cemetery swayed with the wind, but the green was bleak under the desolation He Yining sat beside the tombstones of he Tianshu and Meng ya, with his head gently leaning on the cold tombstone, as if hiding in the arms of his parents. However, there is no warmth at all. Some... Are completely desolate in the heart of ice Che. Time, a little bit of the past. Why do you prefer to look sluggish and fall in front of you? If your eyes fan occasionally, it''s also weak and heavy. A gust of wind blew suddenly, and he Yining suddenly shivered uncontrollably. She closed her dry eyes. Her red and swollen eyelids didn''t reduce swelling. When they fell, they seemed to weigh a thousand kilograms. After a while, he Yining slowly opened his eyes, slowly sat up and looked at the two clusters of stars in front of the tombstone. Thinking of the scene of Li Yunze and Li Yunze coming to see his father and mother the day before yesterday, he couldn''t help but put on an astringent smile. But only two days, heaven and hell, happiness and sadness, she felt the feeling of falling from the sky "Dad, mom..." why Ning drooped his eyes and sounded like an old lady in her 70s and 80s, "I not only killed brother Yunhao, but also you..." Her nose was uncontrollably sour and astringent. She thought there were no tears, but she stung her red and swollen eyes again. "Maybe I told Qu Weiwei that I was willful to do what I wanted to do, but I didn''t know how many people''s disasters I was..." why would I rather wring my eyebrows and hold the sadness, "really, I hate myself now." "Dad, you always say that your little Yining should pursue and love like this... But how many people have been hurt by my recklessness?" "I can''t forgive myself. I even hate myself..." "Mom, I''m really afraid of the look in Li Yunze''s eyes when he looks at me when he knows about it." Why did Ning say one sentence in the East and one sentence in the west? Tears had already covered his face. When the cool wind blew, the frozen people were rustling. "Let him think I''m playing with his feelings. He can hate me and annoy me, and even complain about me..." why rather suck his nose, "but I can''t see the impulse to kill me from the bottom of his eyes." Why rather hang your eyes, tears and broken strings of pearls. "Heaven must be punishing me, it must be!" "I clearly have one, but I still greedily want to be with Li Yunze. That''s why I exposed it before we got the certificate." "Hehe, fortunately, really... Fortunately!" "If Li Yunze and I get the certificate, we will know how to deal with ourselves and face it!" "Mom and Dad, you must be afraid that I will suffer more harm and suffer more pain. That''s why you let me find out, right..." "But no matter when I find out about it, I can''t help suffering... I''m really sad!" "I don''t know how to face it, I don''t know..." "Wuwu..." Why rather close your eyes, curl up your legs uncontrollably, lie in the bend of your legs with your arms around, and begin to sob and cry. She didn''t know how to face the current situation. Originally... Originally, she should have got the official license at this time. She should be with Li Yunze in the Civil Affairs Bureau. She thought about how they would take the photos on the marriage certificate against the red background. She also thought about how happy it was when two people looked at each other when they signed each other''s names on the application She thought about too many situations today, but she never thought that happiness would stop! "Hehe, hehe..." He Yining suddenly trembled and began to laugh, so sad and collapsed. Is it all over? He Yining, you should wake up It''s time for you to dream for more than six thousand days and nights! He Yining looked up, wiped the tears from the corners of his eyes with his cold hand, and stood up slowly holding the tombstone. In front of the tombstone, she looked at the photos of her parents. The kind and warm smile could not cover her frozen heart at the moment. The wind continues to blow He Yining''s hair was raised and all her thoughts were scattered. "Miss Yining." Seeing that he Yining came out of the cemetery, Lu Fan hurriedly opened the door for her. He Yining sat in the car and looked back at the direction of the cemetery before he said dryly, "Lu fan, I want to go to the cemetery in the west of the city." "Good!" Lu Fan responded, started the car and left the cemetery. Just as they drove to the west of the city and just turned the corner of the road on the right of the cemetery, Li Yunze turned from the road on the left and stopped in the parking lot of the cemetery Looking at the entrance of the cemetery, Li Yunze twisted his eyebrows and went to the tomb of he Tianshu Far away, there is no one. Li Yunze walked to the tombstone. It was the two bouquets of stars that had come before. There was no new bouquet. Lifting his eyes, Li Yunze frowned when his eyes fell on the tombstones of he Tianshu and Meng ya. He thought Yining was hurt last night and might come here today Suddenly! Li Yunze Yu Guang crossed the tombstone and suddenly twisted his eyebrows. He came forward and looked at the grass on that side. It looked as if it was newly pressed "Yining should have been here?!" Li Yunze thought, took his mobile phone and dialed he Yining. Still unable to connect! Li Yunze was a little angry. He looked at the tombstone and said with a little emotion: "uncle and aunt, originally, I should call my parents now, but you see, Yining doesn''t make me feel better!" Speaking of ''not making me feel better'', Li Yunze suddenly laughed angrily. "Oh, forget it. I haven''t let her feel better for so many years. I''ll chase her too!" Li Yunze sighed and left the cemetery after looking at the photos on the second old man''s tombstone. When he got into the car, Li Yunze just wanted to start the car and suddenly stopped. He knows he Yining. Even if he is hurt by the scene, even if he feels that his parents have a car accident because of himself, he will definitely not avoid him! It can be said that what day is today is very important to him and more important to Yining. Why can''t her cell phone be connected?! Li Yunze sank his eyes and dialed Xiao Jing, "check the location of the number for me." Xiao Jing looked at the approved documents. After a few words of teasing Li Yunze, he said, "send me the number and I''ll ask the communication company to check it." "Yes." Li Yunze answered, hung up the phone and sent Xiao Jing he Yining''s number. When he changed hands, he dialed Jin shaosi. As soon as the phone was connected, Li Yunze didn''t have any detour. He asked, "where''s Yining?" Chapter 1457 Jin shaosi''s eyes were slightly deep and said softly, "shouldn''t I ask you this time?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth and his face became colder. "Young master Jin, tell the truth, is something wrong?" "What do you want to ask?" Jin shaosi didn''t hide it all the time. "For example, why can''t Yining''s mobile phone be connected all the time?" Li Yunze gritted his teeth. "I forgot to tell you last night," Jin shaosi said. "Yining''s mobile phone accidentally fell into the wine fermentation barrel. I just bought her a new mobile phone and haven''t had time to make up the card!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Li Yunze''s eyes sank slightly. "Jin shaosi, I admire your prudence." He sniffed coldly, "it''s a businessman who has been ups and downs for ten years. He''s not red and breathless. He''s very powerful." Li Yunze hung up without giving Mr. Jin a chance to speak. Looking ahead, Li Yunze frowned unknowingly. Something must have happened. The most important thing is Jin shaosi''s attitude The mobile phone rings. It''s Xiao Jing. Then he said, "where is it?" "I can''t locate it. It should be shut down or something..." Xiao Jing said. "The final location was last night, in his vineyard." Li Yunze frowned. In this case, it would be consistent with what Jin shaosi said Is he thinking too much?! But if the mobile phone really fell into the wine bucket, even if Yining was hurt last night, on such an important day today, she couldn''t not contact him. Li Yunze hung up. He called the examination office of the health and Family Planning Commission again to determine why Yining still didn''t get the certificate. He simply sent a text message to why Yining: I''ll wait for you at the door of the Civil Affairs Bureau. It''s almost noon now. It''s estimated that it''s too late. I''ll wait for you to get off work in the afternoon! ¡­¡­ Why should I rather stand at the gate of the cemetery in the west of the city and watch the bleak door become desolate in the sun, and my heart keeps shrinking. Lu Fan looked at the time. "Miss Yining, do you want to go in?" He Yining has been standing outside for almost an hour since he arrived here. If you keep standing, you may delay the plane. Why Ning narrowed his eyes, shook his head, dragged his weak body and turned around... Got into the car. After getting on the bus, Lu Fan dialed Jin shaosi, "boss, we''re going back." Jin shaosi looked at the time and said, "go directly to the airport." "OK." Lu Fan hung up the phone and went directly to Los Angeles International Airport. Li Yunze is looking for Yining. If he is caught eating in the city, it will be bad. At the moment, Li Yunze is the most invisible person in Yining. Otherwise, she will really collapse. At the airport, Jin shaosi has arranged lunch in the VIP room. He Yining looked at the exquisite lunch and had no appetite at all. "Ace, I can''t eat it." "Then have some porridge?" Jin shaosi said, "Yining, no matter what, you can''t punish yourself in this way..." "I know." Why is Ning''s voice hoarse more and more severe, "let me be more willful today, okay?" What else can Jin shaosi say? Heart to heart. If things change, it''s because he killed Yining''s relatives. He can''t face Yining, and Yining will hate him "Good!" Jin shaosi raised his hand and gently stroked he Yining''s hair. "Yining, don''t be afraid... You still have me with you. You''re not alone." After a pause, Jin shaosi felt as if his heart was bleeding. But even though it was painful, his mouth was filled with a faint smile to relieve people''s emotions, "not in the name of love, it''s just the company of relatives..." He Yining looked at Jin shaosi with guilt and heartache in his eyes. "Sorry..." "Don''t tell me you''re sorry." Jin shaosi said softly, "no matter when, I will be by your side, because I want to be with you, even if it is the mode of relatives." Why would you rather suck your nose than keep crying. She doesn''t know that today''s departure is not only a distraction for ace to accompany her, but also... The first step to leave Li Yunze. "The plane from Los Angeles to Paris is about to start boarding..." Why Ning turned his head and looked at the planes taking off and landing in the distance through the small window. He gradually lost his mind for a while. She hasn''t gone abroad for a long time. She hasn''t gone abroad since her father and mother left Taking back his sight, he Yining took out his mobile phone, forbeared and opened the machine. In the morning, ACE said that he transferred her number call to a number that couldn''t be connected, so Li Yunze wouldn''t call in. However, she chose to turn it off. Maybe she was afraid When a text message arrived, he Yining''s heart suddenly stung when he looked at the "Li Yunze" displayed on the screen. He touched the corner of his mouth. When the screen was getting dim, why would he rather touch it. After watching it for a while, I opened the screen and entered the SMS interface. Li Ze: I can''t wait for you at the door of the Civil Affairs Bureau at noon. I''ll be here soon! "Oh" came, why Ning suddenly bent over with her hand over her chest, and her face was twisted together with pain. "Yining?!" Mr. Jin twisted his eyebrows to see why he Yining. "It''s all right..." why Ning closed her eyes and took a deep breath. She swallowed secretly, bit her teeth and turned off her mobile phone. However, turning off the cell phone can''t turn off the nerve. He Yining''s mind at the moment is completely filled with Li Yunze''s words waiting for her at the door of the Civil Affairs Bureau Every word, like a knife, gouged out and cut her heart. She couldn''t breathe because of the pain. ¡­¡­ Time, in waiting for a little bit of the past. When the sun moved to the west at noon and the sunset dyed the sky with gorgeous rays, Li Yun made a self mockery at the corners of his mouth. When the last staff member of the Civil Affairs Bureau got off work, the gatekeeper locked the door, and Li Yunze suddenly wanted to laugh. With a bang, Li Yunze hit the steering wheel. Because of his great strength, the body shook. "He Yining, I''ll see when you''re ready to appear..." Li Yunze gritted his teeth, started the car and went directly to he Yining''s apartment. But it was a phone call from Xiao Jing. "What?" Li Yunze has a bad breath. Xiao Jing raised his eyebrows. "Are you in a bad mood?" He asked knowingly, "because I can''t find it, why is it better?!" "Xiao Jing, Beichen is not here. Do you seem to be idle?" Li Yunze gritted his teeth, "I''m free to gossip." Xiao Jing shrugged. "As for me, I just booked a ticket for Chen Shao. I found something small by the way. Is Li Shao interested in listening?" If Li Yunze were in front of Xiao Jing now, he would punch him directly. "Why did the plane leave Los Angeles at 3 pm..." Xiao Jing said, "well, the destination is Paris!" Chapter 1458 Li Yunze was stunned as if he had been acupointd. Originally, today two people want to get the certificate, but why did Ning go to Paris without saying a word ha-ha! Li Yunze laughed at himself, and the position of his heart was momentarily blocked. The feeling that he couldn''t go up and down made him have some difficulty breathing. "Who is she with?" Li Yunze asked after a long time. "Jin shaosi!" Sure enough Li Yunze laughed at himself again. He believed in Yining, but believing didn''t mean he wouldn''t be angry. No matter what happens, today is the day for them to get the certificate, but she left without saying anything "Need to come out for a drink?" Xiao Jing asked, "I''ve just finished." "I''m not in the habit of drowning my worries with wine!" Li Yunze gritted his teeth and hung up directly. Xiao Jing listened to the hanging sound inside, shrugged his shoulders, whistled and walked out of the office. As he walked, he whispered, "love, it''s really a torture knife..." "A little virgin, what''s the saint of love here?!" Susan just came out of the office and make complaints about his eyes. "Hey, I don''t like to hear that." Xiao Jing raised his eyebrows. "What''s a little virgin?" "Oh, is it an old virgin?" "..." Xiao Jing gnashed his teeth. "Susan, are you doing something Susan smiled, glanced at Xiao Jing, pressed the elevator and asked, "are you interested in going to have hot pot?" "You eat hot pot alone?" "Can''t one eat hot pot?" Susan rolled her eyes. "Are you going?" "Come together, save you from being alone!" Xiao Jing said with a grin. Susan turned her eyes with a ''ha ha face'', "it''s like you''re not alone..." "Why can''t you be cute, you woman?" The sound of bickering gradually goes away as the elevator goes down What permeates the imperial building will never be as relaxed as Xiao Jing and Susan at the moment. Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin''s "battle" began because of a simple mo. The gratitude, resentment, love, hate and sorrow between Li Yunze and he Yining also seemed to start scratching their hearts and lungs, becoming complicated and confusing ¡­¡­ In Li Yunze''s apartment, two dozen beers he bought when he came back were placed on the tea table. However, he didn''t move a can, but looked at it in a daze, as if he could see himself drunk There will be an operation tomorrow. He can''t touch anything with alcohol before the operation. Even if he wants to get drunk at this moment, he can only think about it. Life to him is fragile and tenacious. As a doctor, he can''t make fun of the patient''s life emotionally. It''s sad to think about it sometimes He leaned weakly on the sofa slowly, his mind full of messy thinking, and he didn''t know what kind of thinking he was going to think about at the moment. If he used to feel this way about he Yining, does he feel it now?! Time, driven by the painstaking rotation of the second hand. The sun and moon alternate, and when Los Angeles ushers in the first wave of cold air in winter, people stand firm in the cold wind. "Li Shao, are you looking for me?" Yanmiao knocks on the door and comes in. Li Yunze slowly put down his hand and motioned yanmiao to sit down. "You don''t look well..." yanmiao frowned. "Give me your cell phone." "Huh?" Yanmiao was stunned, then reacted and gave his mobile phone to Li Yunze with doubts. Li Yunze didn''t say anything, but dialed he Yining with yanmiao''s mobile phone He didn''t know why he had such a ridiculous idea, that is, whether Yining had blacklisted his number, so he couldn''t get through all the time. Three days, three days! Yining didn''t contact her, and he couldn''t contact her Yan Miao looked at Li Yunze''s tight face and suddenly frowned, "Li Shao, are you looking for Yining?" It''s a question, but she somehow thinks so. "Yes." Li Yunze didn''t hide, "I can''t get through to her." "I can''t get through." Yan Miao said while Li Yunze listened to the prompt that he was "unable to connect" from his mobile phone, "we contacted on wechat." Li Yunze looked at yanmiao, lowered his eyes and slid his fingers, "don''t mind if I look at your wechat!" "Whatever..." yanmiao didn''t stop. She didn''t know what happened between Yining and Li Yunze, but it was obvious that Yining was hiding from Li Yunze. As a friend, she can''t ask, but she can''t care. She knows Yining too well. If Yining only needs one person''s company in this world, it must be Li Yunze. Therefore, as long as Li Yunze''s heart for Yining is true, she wants to help them. "In fact, she just sent me a message when she arrived in Paris, saying that she would come back this week in the next few days..." yanmiao said. Li Yunze made a self mockery at the bottom of his eyes, handed his mobile phone to yanmiao and said, "she determined the time and told you when to come back. Tell me." "OK." Yan Miao answered, but after thinking for a while, he still asked, "can I ask, what happened to you?" Li Yunze was silent for a few seconds. His voice was weak and said, "we made an appointment to get the certificate, but she went to Paris with Jin shaosi quietly." "Do you think Yining and ASI..." They shook their heads. "They didn''t think there was anything between them." Paused, "but she owes me an explanation, doesn''t she?!" "Li Yunze, should you say your heart is big, or trust Yining?" Yan Miao asked. "A persistent dream from the age of ten, yanmiao. Do you prefer a happy ending, or do you find that it''s just to realize the dream?" Li Yunze did not answer the question. "No one likes a bad ending..." "Yes, no one likes a bad ending..." Li Yunze pulled the corners of his mouth mockingly, "I do the same." ¡­¡­ Paris. Why would she rather wrap her coat and let the wind raise her hair? She stood quietly in front of the Sacred Heart hall, on the power square, overlooking most of Paris. It was clear that the scenery was charming, but she began to be dazed again. Jin shaosi came over with water in his hand, looked at why Ning lost his soul, sighed slightly and walked over. "I''ll go back tomorrow. Have you figured out how to face it?" Jin shaosi stood beside he Yining. He Yining gently fanned his eyes, "maybe he is angry and doesn''t want to see me." Jin shaosi looked sideways at he Yining. "The report will be sent out later. It won''t bother you, but everyone who knows you should know it''s you." "Yes." Why should I rather answer the voice. Jin shaosi took back his sight and fell in the distance. "Yining, you should be prepared..." he narrowed his eyes slightly, "Li Yunze won''t let you go if he can''t get a satisfactory answer!" Chapter 1459 Why did Ning pull down the corners of her mouth astringently and look at the sight in the distance, which is already dry and powerful. These days, she can always start to be in a daze for no reason. Her mind is blank, but the sadness in her heart is getting stronger and stronger. "Ace, what can I do?" He Yining gently fanned his eyelashes, "I''m also very desperate..." Jin shaosi looked at he Yining quietly. In the cold wind, her face was pale without a trace of blood color. Although her eyes had subsided, they were red. "Yining, it will be hard next." Jin shaosi said, "if you can''t hold on..." Jin shaosi didn''t say anything later. It''s too cruel. These days, he wanted to give Yining that if he couldn''t stick to it, he would directly tell Li Yunze what happened that year, finish everything and start over. However, he has no way to determine whether Li Yunze will do anything, and how to let Yining try to tell him? Li Jinxi and Chen Yu have been told by Yining these days. He seemed to be able to imagine what would happen to the two people if Li Yunze knew that Yining was the culprit of everything. "Let''s go..." why Ning spoke faintly and then turned away. Jin shaosi took a deep look at why he was calm, sighed deeply, and walked up with him. Romantic Paris can''t dispel the pain in her heart. How much she loves Li Yunze and how desperate she is now. Jin shaosi seemed to feel that she wanted to commit suicide "Ace, I sometimes wonder if everything is over when people die." Jin shaosi suddenly frowned. The feeling he had just felt was not a feeling. Looking at he Yining in horror, Jin shaosi began to breathe quickly, "Yining..." He Yining smiled, "I won''t die." She looked at the passing street view outside the window with dull eyes. "I still have one to take care of. I can''t lose my mother one by one because of my fault..." she paused, and then said, "moreover, I want to save my life and repent!" The ugly smile at the corners of his mouth made people heartache. Jin shaosi pulled why Yining into his arms, gritted his teeth and said, "Yining, do you have to torture yourself like this "Yes." Why should I answer, "people always have to bear what they have done, and no one can escape." No one can choose to forget after making a mistake as if it didn''t happen. "You didn''t mean to..." Jin shaosi flushed his eyes. Why rather stuffy in his arms, smiled. "Can you evade responsibility if you don''t mean it?" Why would you rather open your mouth gently, "no... isn''t it?!" Jin shaosi closed his eyes, his gums clenched, and his temples twitched uncontrollably. He really wanted to knock out Yining and let her forget this miserable memory Lu fan drives the car and looks at the two people in the back seat from the rearview mirror. His face is also sad. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. "Jin shaosi, President of Jin''s group, took his lover on a romantic trip to Paris..." in Huakang hospital, the little nurses crowded together, "God, who is this woman? It has not been exposed!" "Look at this head touching killing. Tut Tut, Jin shaosi is a boyfriend with full marks." "Yes, yes." The little nurse put her fists in her heart, "I used to envy Gu Beichen''s love with Jian Mo, but now I suddenly envy this woman... Alas, why are all the good men in the world from other women "You can choose to pursue less!" "Yes, Li Shao is also a good man, and he is estimated to be single now..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The little nurses laughed and joked one by one, and even those who had just entered the hospital blushed at the thought of Li Yunze''s handsome appearance of being serious at work and occasionally joking with everyone. "Head nurse, does Li Shao have a girlfriend?" Someone asked the head nurse who was writing the record. The head nurse didn''t look up. "I don''t know. Why don''t you ask Li Shao and tell me the answer?" "Forget it, don''t dare!" The little nurse curled her lips and muttered, "however, there are few scandals among the people in this rich family, but there are few of them... Last time there was, the woman was also unspeakable." "A woman like Qu Weiwei must be a misunderstanding. Li Shaocai doesn''t like it!" Don''t defile the world of medicine "Just..." After someone agreed, he picked up his mobile phone and continued to scan the comments. "I''ll go. The paparazzi King broke the news that there will be a big story about Jin shaosi in the near future... It won''t be announcing marriage or exposing the heroine?!" "Let me see, let me see..." "Cough!" Suddenly, the head nurse coughed gently. Several little nurses were still watching the news and suddenly felt that the atmosphere around them was somewhat unusual. They looked at the place where the breath condensed, and saw Li Yunze indifferent, but he seemed to stand there with some strange breath condensed on his body, and his eyes fell on several people. "Li, Li Shao..." they bit their lower lips and were nervous. Li Yunze stretched out his hand and said nothing. The little nurse timidly handed the mobile phone to Li Yunze. With a hard face, she was thinking that the mobile phone she just bought would not be confiscated?! Li Yunze took over the mobile phone and didn''t say anything. He was just indifferent, and there was no superfluous expression on his face With his slender and powerful fingers sliding, Li Yunze quietly watched the news until the photo with the picture. There is a picture above. The sunset passes through the Eiffel Tower and is covered with a layer of halo around he Yining, so that people can only see her outline, but can''t see who it is. Jin shaosi smiled softly at the corners of his mouth, touched his hand and gently stroked he Yining''s head Romantic city, romantic scenery and warm sunset, "lover" is doing the warmest thing. The second one is on the steps of a church. Two people hold hands to pick up the steps. The angle should be to look up slightly at the position of the Church That church, Li Yunze knows. Locally, many lovers come here to pray and worship. It is also because it has achieved too many lovers'' love, and in the hearts of local or tourists, it represents the best wishes for lovers. ha-ha! Li Yunze put a strange smile on the corner of his mouth. Whether it was the head nurse or a few little nurses, they thought about the meaning of his smile. Put the mobile phone on the nurse''s desk. Li Yunze didn''t say anything and walked indifferently to the elevator Everyone looked at each other and wondered what was going on?! The head nurse looked at the mobile phone on the nurse''s desk, twisted her eyebrows and crossed her eyes. She has been in the hospital for nearly ten years. She knows something about Li Shao. He was so strange just now... Is it because of Jin shaosi''s news? Just thinking, suddenly, there was a loud bang in the elevator. In an instant, everyone stared Chapter 1460 "What''s going on?" Someone asked, and then several little nurses walked to the elevator. I only saw the downward numbers moving, and the little nurses whispered one by one, "God, I thought the elevator broke down. I was scared to death..." The head nurse stood in front of the elevator. After losing consciousness for a few seconds, she signaled everyone to go back to their jobs. She waited until the crowd dispersed and pressed the elevator. When the elevator came up, the head nurse went in, looked around and finally landed in one place There are obvious marks on the elevator wall, which should be just left by Li Shao. The head nurse raised her hand, gently crossed the mark with her fingers, and gradually twisted the center of her eyebrows. How much effort does it take to leave such a dent on the elevator?! The head nurse looked sideways when the elevator door opened and saw yanmiao come in. "What are you looking at?" Yanmiao looked curiously at the place where the head nurse was still touching with his hand, and subconsciously came forward, "Hey, there are dents?!" "Doctor Yan also thinks it''s a dent?" Asked the head nurse. Yan Miao was stunned and asked subconsciously, "isn''t it?" The head nurse twisted her eyebrows again and looked at the place again. She guessed that the sound just sounded, I''m afraid it was the elevator hit by Li Shao''s fist Li Shao, who has always had a calm temperament, actually vented his emotions regardless of the occasion. Is it because of Jin shaosi''s news or the woman in the scandal?! Seeing the head nurse meditating, yanmiao twisted her eyebrows strangely and asked, "what''s the matter? Is there anything wrong?" "What kind of person did you think you were in school with?" asked the nurse Yanmiao wondered why the head nurse suddenly asked this question, but he still replied, "it seems easy to get along with, but in fact, there is a sense of alienation in his bones... Well, he is also very introverted, so people sometimes can''t see through his emotions at that time." "Do you think Li Shaohui is a person who vent because of impulse?" Asked the head nurse. Yan Miao shook his head, almost instinctively. The head nurse looked at yanmiao and subconsciously looked at the trace "You mean, here..." yanmiao suddenly widened his eyes, "... Did Li Shao smash it?!" With a "Ding", the head nurse had not had time to answer, and the elevator had reached the first floor. When the elevator door opened, Li Yunze came in with a box of medicine in his hand. "Li Shao!" "Li Shao..." Yanmiao and the head nurse subconsciously shouted. They stood still and looked guilty at the dent on the elevator. "Don''t you go out?" Li Yunze spoke faintly and pressed the floor. "Er..." Yan Miao was stunned and said at the same time with the head nurse, "out!" Immediately, they both got out of the elevator, watched the elevator door close and swallowed one after another. "No, I''m going to find Li Shao..." yanmiao suddenly reacted. "I should go back to work, too!" The head nurse pulled at the corner of her mouth. One eye and two eyes are not clear. "Did something just happen?" Yanmiao pressed another elevator. "Just read a news..." the head nurse took out her mobile phone and showed yanmiao the news of Jin shaosi. Yanmiao''s eyes widened in an instant. Others may not see who the woman is, but Li Yunze and her can definitely recognize Yining at the first sight. Yanmiao went to find Li Yunze. When he entered the office, he saw him in a daze facing a box of medicine in front of him. "Li Shao..." Li Yunze raised his eyes to yanmiao and asked indifferently, "what''s up?" Yanmiao first said work, then he smiled at the corner of his mouth and asked, "I don''t believe there is anything between Yining and ASI." "Yes." Li Yunze responded faintly and threw the medicine on his desk into the dustbin. Yanmiao just saw that medicine is to relieve nerve pressure, "you believe, but you show..." "Yan Miao," Li Yunze interrupted Yan Miao, "you told me that I should have gone to Paris with the woman and other men who got my license, and such photos were also published. I believe... Ha ha, even if I believe it, how can I turn a blind eye?" "..." Yan Miao looked at Li Yunze''s face. He didn''t know whether it was self mockery, loss or anger. He was speechless. She is Yining''s best friend, but at this moment, she can''t find anyone to help Yining defend and comfort Li Yunze. "You go and be busy!" Li Yunze took back his sight and opened his mouth. Yanmiao nodded and left. However, when I closed the office door, I saw the loneliness pervading Li Yunze, which gave birth to a touch of heartache. After Yan Miao left, he Yining left a message on wechat: Yining, can you tell me what''s your situation and what you think?! He Yining didn''t reply. She didn''t know how to reply. As far as she and Jin shaosi knew, she didn''t intend to let anyone share her unhappiness. After a while, he Yining thought for a while. He was afraid of yanmiao. He replied: Yanyan, I''m fine. Go back and talk. Yanmiao''s heart became more and more heavy. She always felt why something had happened to Ning, but now she knew that she could only wait until she came back. ¡­¡­ The plane broke through the clouds and soared 30000 feet above. He Yining looked out the window at the arc aperture that seemed very close, but actually very far away, and slowly closed his eyes Ten hours later, when the plane landed at Los Angeles International Airport, it was foggy and raining for the first time in winter. "Eat first and I''ll take you back, huh?" Asked Jin shaosi. He Yining shook his head. "Ace, I''m a little tired and want to go back to bed." Jin shaosi thought that he Yining had some plane meals at that time, so he didn''t force, "OK, I''ll take you back." He Yining nodded. The winter in Los Angeles is a little cold. With a light rain, the sky is foggy and bleak. The car stopped on the road not far from he Yining''s home. Jin shaosi held an umbrella and sent him to the corridor Upstairs, a pair of eyes watched their footsteps, and a sneer crossed the corners of their mouths. "What''s the matter? Remember to call me." Jin shaosi explained. "Yes." He Yining nodded. "Go up..." He Yining looked at Jin shaosi and said nothing. He turned and walked upstairs After turning over the key, why would you rather open the door, drag some weak body in and close the door. All the actions are mechanical. In the dark room because of the rain, it looks particularly strange Suddenly, why would you rather close the door, turn around, step over the porch, and a voice came "Have a good time?" Chapter 1461 Why Ning looked at the sound and saw Li Yunze standing on the balcony. The curtain of night hung over Li Yunze, like a ghost hidden in the dark, with a gloomy feeling, but shrouded in desolation. Why Ning suddenly widened his eyes. Unexpectedly, Li Yunze would be here now, "you..." "Surprised I''ll be here?" Li Yunze slowly raised his step and came over, looking at he Yining with burning eyes, "or do you think I shouldn''t be here?" Li Yunze''s voice was very calm and light. Obviously, he didn''t have much emotion, but he instantly filled the surrounding air with a cold breath. Why did Ning zhe lower the corner of his mouth, hold his hand slightly, and endure the thought of retreating because of Li Yunze''s approaching. "He Yining, can you tell me..." Li Yunze stood in front of him Yining and slowly opened his mouth, "what do you mean by your current situation?" Why did Ning''s lips move back and forth and think of good words? At this moment, in the face of such Li Yunze, she couldn''t say a word. "Ho!" Li Yunze sneered, "why, don''t you even have an explanation?" "Li Yunze, I..." "Let me guess what you want to say?" Li Yunze interrupted what he Yining said, "you''re going to tell me now. Because you sorted out the relics of uncle he and aunt he, you suddenly found that their car accident happened because you came to me. There''s no way to face it, so you chose to escape..." He Yining''s heart suddenly "cluttered", and his eyes looked at Li Yunze in horror through the increasingly bleak environment. "Or," said Li Yunze, looking at he Yining without blinking his eyes, with an indifferent voice from beginning to end and without too much emotional calmness, "you want to tell me that you have completely completed the dream of youth, so you find that you don''t love me so much now." Why rather bite the lips and hands, the more clenched the tighter. "Or..." Li Yunze smiled, but there was no temperature in the dark. "Do you want to tell me that you have premarital phobia?!" He Yining only felt that his legs and feet were soft and subconsciously stepped back. "Yining, do you know?" Li Yunze''s smile gradually turned into self mockery, "these days, I''ve helped you think of all the reasons..." It was distressing to hear the bleak words. He Yining looked at Li Yunze, and the sadness in his heart gradually spread. He should have been an indifferent and alienated Li Yunze. He should have been a cold and arrogant Li Yunze who didn''t care about anything except medicine. But at this moment, she clearly felt his anger, but because it was her, she became helpless. "I always think that when you come back, I will strangle you with anger..." Li Yunze laughed at himself again, "but what? At this moment, I feel very sad." "Li Yunze..." he Yining spoke in the end, but he couldn''t say anything after just shouting a name. "Is Paris fun? Is it easy to go with major Jin?" Li Yunze asked, "without the pressure of my parents'' death and the past with me, everything can be easily faced. If you don''t say it, you can have a new life journey." "I..." Li Yunze approached he Yining. Just when she thought he was going to do something, suddenly, she was caught by his long arm and bumped into a familiar and warm embrace. Li Yunze tightly hugged he Yining. He closed his eyes and his voice was hoarse under forbearance. "He Yining, I didn''t think I would be so unpromising..." He Yining was pained by Li Yunze''s strength, but she didn''t say a word. "I''m afraid. I''m afraid that you will slowly stay away from me because of your psychological burden... I''m afraid that if Jin shaosi, an excellent man who loves you deeply, is around you, you will slowly be moved by him." Li Yunze''s voice was completely unable to hide the uncertainty, "from small to large, I have never been so confident in myself..." He Yining''s nose is very sour. She''s so afraid of Li Yunze Silence. A moment''s silence seemed to condense the air. Only Li Yunze breathed a little heavily, and he Yining''s heartbroken voice that only he could hear. "Yining..." I don''t know how long it took. They couldn''t support each other for a long time. Li Yunze''s dry dumb voice came, "don''t leave me..." Why Ning suddenly closed her eyes? She was afraid that tears could not be controlled. Li Yunze waited for a while, but he Yining didn''t answer. Even her body didn''t move under his embrace. He was a little flustered. That kind of flustered was slowly piled up after several days of being unable to contact and seeing the news of he Yining''s romantic trip to Paris with Jin shaosi. Li Yunze has never tried this feeling. He is a man and is not as sensitive to love as a woman. He never thought that he would reveal his thoughts so humbly when he lived so big. "Yining, don''t leave me." Li Yunze tightened his arms around he Yining, as if to embed her into his body, and he would never separate again. "Oh" a painful chant, uncontrolled overflow, why Ning''s lips. Li Yunze used so much force that her body instinctively resisted, "Li Yunze, you hurt me!" "Does it hurt?" Li Yunze slowly opened his eyes and his eyes fell in front of the dark. "Yining, do you know how painful my heart is when I saw the report with you and Jin shaosi?" Why did Ning''s lips move back and forth, and his body trembled slightly, but he didn''t know whether it was heartache or physical pain. Li Yunze slowly let go of he Yining, looked straight at her like a burning fire, gritted his teeth and said, "I''ve never been so rude and can hardly control my emotions..." his eyes were slightly scarlet. "I even went to the pharmacy to get the medicine that needs to relieve my emotional stress." He Yining''s heart suddenly throbbed, and the colic like a fried dough twist made her almost unstuck. Her eyes were slightly red. Why would she rather bite her lower lip and say, "Li Yunze, I want to calm down..." she took a breath and continued, "whether it''s mom and dad''s car accident or maybe it''s really premarital phobia, I need to calm down." Li Yunze looked at he Yining quietly, and a sense of strangeness overflowed from the fundus of his eyes. "I have nothing to do with ACE, but I can''t pass the pass in my heart..." he Yining said, "I think I can, I think I can''t think about it, but... No!" "You..." Li Yunze''s voice trembled. "What do you mean?" Chapter 1462 He Yining''s eyes became more and more red. She looked at Li Yunze and said in a weak voice, "Li Yunze, I want to calm down, okay?" "Not good!" Li Yunze immediately refuted. "But I really can''t get married with you in such a mood..." he Yining seems to have some collapse and raised his hand to express something. The whole person is full of emotional instability under irritability. Li Yunze looked at he Yining quietly. The emotion that had a sense of stripping before was getting stronger and stronger. "Do you want to be separated from me?" Li Yunze asked with deep eyes. "I just want to calm down for a while..." why would you rather hold your breath and keep your tears from falling out? "I don''t want us to be bored at the last two, Li Yunze, do you understand?" "Calm down? Hehe... Why not? You just want to separate from me, don''t you?" Li Yunze roared like a wild beast on the verge of madness. He Yining''s fingernails have been embedded in the palm of her hand. She tried to sober and calm herself with such pain. "If you have to understand like this, I can''t help it." Such an ambiguous answer is the most maddening. For Li Yunze, who has lost his calmness at the moment, the same is true! "He Yining, want to separate, you dream!" Li Yunze gnashed his teeth and roared, "Why are you so obsessed with me when you chase me? If you want to leave, you can turn around indifferently? Ah?! what do you think of me as Li Yunze? A person who comes and goes at once?!" He Yining''s heart was in pain, and her heart was shouting: No, no, not like this She wants to be with Li Yunze every day and the whole world revolves around him. How can she be willing to leave?! There is no way to forgive Yunze for her brother''s hurt, because she can''t accept it. Also hate, she would rather Li Yunze hate her than kill her! "I..." "I can give you time." Li Yunze hurriedly interrupted what he Yining wanted to resist. He gritted his teeth and said, "Yining, I''ll give you time to digest slowly, but it''s impossible to separate!" "What if I can''t pass the barrier in my heart in my life?" He Yining roared out of control, "are we just wasting it all the time?" "Then we''ll spend our whole life..." Li Yunze clenched his teeth and squeezed out the gap between his teeth word by word. "We can''t get married or get a license... But why would you rather be my li Yunze woman and my child''s mother in this life!" "Li Yunze, are you crazy!" He Yining looked at Li Yunze in disbelief. He surprised her and hurt her more. "Yes, I''m crazy. I''ll want to be with you after so many years!" Li Yunze still clenched his teeth, "he Yining, the beginning is what you want to start, and the end is what only I can end." "Li Yunze, did you force me to death?" Why can''t Ning hold on. "Then we''ll die together..." Li Yunze did not step back. "At least, there is a companion in reincarnation, isn''t there?!" Why Ning stamped her foot with an "ah", and her whole mood began to shake from side to side, as if she wanted to find a strength that could support herself. "Li Yunze, I don''t want to see you, don''t want to..." why Ning gasped, "will you let me go, even now?" "If I let you go now, can you no longer escape?" Li Yunze approached he Yining and put his hand on his chest. "He Yining, if you are sad, will I not feel heartache? But what can I do? I never thought that Li Yunze would have today, but what can I do? I can only force you and myself!" "No -" why would you rather shake your hands, "you can not force yourself, you can also not force me, why do you have to make us so embarrassed at this moment!" "Yining..." Li Yunze grabbed he Yining''s hand, which was the hand with his proposal ring. He pressed her hand on the position of his heart and said in a tight voice, "you feel that at this moment, my heart is beating for you, for you!" He Yining didn''t dare to touch it. She was afraid that she couldn''t hold it. She wanted to draw back her hand, but she was caught by Li Yunze, so that she couldn''t draw back "Li Yunze, can you let go?" He Yining''s begging voice spilled over his lips, "I''m a little tired. I''m really tired. What do we have? Can we say it tomorrow?" "No!" Li Yunze has never been stubborn and stubborn, "I want the exact answer, you tell me, you won''t leave me, no!" Li Yunze is so humble and even powerless that he Yining collapses completely. She gave a deep and low roar, and regardless of the pain of her hand, she twisted hard, trying to get rid of Li Yunze. She was really afraid that she could not see such Li Yunze, and things would become more difficult to face without her control. However, he Yining''s strength is limited in the end. Just as she wanted to break free, Li Yunze grabbed her hand and raised it in front of her "Yining, do you see?!" Li Yunze looked at her in a hoarse voice and said, "one plus one equals one... Without you, I and one will not be complete. Have you forgotten the proposal under the Hippocratic statue?" With Li Yunze''s question, he Yining just kept twisting his hand. Li Yunze''s shackles are too tight. She can''t get away at all "Have you forgotten the meaning of this ring?" "He Yining, have you forgotten that you agreed to my proposal?" "Li Yunze, don''t force me any more!" He Yining finally cried, stared at Li Yunze, and stopped twisting his wrist. "Do you want to know if I remember now? OK, I''ll tell you..." He Yining''s face suddenly became cold. Her idle hand raised, but her vision confronted Li Yunze and took off the ring Li Yunze had an unspeakable sense of suffocation in his heart. He was stunned for a moment. When he Yining repeatedly said "I''ll tell you now", the consciousness of her subordinates relaxed. He Yining''s eyes suddenly widened, as if he were cruel. She held up the ring and looked at Li Yunze. Just when he realized what, she turned around, walked to the window with big steps and threw the ring out "He Yining..." Li Yunze roared behind her. He Yining''s eyes were wide, forced back her tears and turned around. Through the darkness, she could feel li Yunze''s anger, "Li Yunze, see? This is my attitude!" "Er..." Li Yunze roared, stepped forward quickly and grabbed he Yining''s shoulder blade, as if to eat people. "He Yining, how dare you, how dare you?!" Chapter 1463 The sound of "Ding" came when Li Yunze grabbed why Ning''s shoulder blades, accompanied by his roar. Such a subtle sound didn''t attract his attention at all. He Yining looked at Li Yunze with scarlet eyes, and the whole person was shaken by him. "He Yining, what are you going to do... Ah?!" Li Yunze screamed with collapse. His eyes were scarlet as if they were going to overflow and devour why Ning at any time. Why should tears fall uncontrollably? She let Li Yunze shake her body and the corners of her mouth smile. Yes, laughing! That kind of smile, falling in Li Yunze''s eyes, seemed to be ridicule, and seemed to be proud under provocation. Li Yunze pushed away. He Yining looked at the woman who said he was her dream every day What''s wrong?! What''s wrong?! Is it because I woke up and found that everything was wrong that led to this situation?! "Li Yunze, really, I''m so tired." He Yining''s body hit the windowsill and her waist hurt, but she was still laughing, "I just want to calm down. Why do you have to force me like this?" Lifting his eyes, he Yining looked at Li Yunze with a cold heart at the bottom of his eyes, "you can''t forgive Chen Yu, Chen family... Because of the death of aunt and brother Yunhao." "What about me?" He Yining smiled bitterly, laughing like ghost crying, "my parents'' death, whether I admit it or not, is because of me, isn''t it?" "Li Yunze, tell me, how can I forgive myself, how can I forgive -" The roar was filled with desperate sadness, not only because of his parents'' car accident, but also because of Li Yunhao''s death. The unintentional loss caused a tragedy under the chain reaction. He Yining, how can you forgive yourself, and how can you expect Li Yunze to forgive each other and be together as if nothing exists?! "Comparing heart to heart, you can''t forgive Chen Yu, can you?" "That''s different..." "Why is it different?" Why should Ning roar, "can you forgive the man who killed brother Yunhao? Can you be with the man who killed brother Yunhao? You can''t!" "But I didn''t kill my uncle and aunt!" Li Yunze clenched his teeth and squeezed out words, and his eyes were scarlet. Why did Ning''s mouth move back and forth, and almost impulsively said, ''she was looking for him, so her father and mother had a car accident''. Ace said that Qu Weiwei told Li Yunze that her father and mother went after her because they thought she knew some secrets. She asked Li Yunze if it was the first draft she accidentally took away that led to the death of Yunhao''s brother. If she said so, he would be able to guess what she knew "Li Yunze, just give me some time, will you?" He Yining asked powerlessly. "How long will it take you? Three days, a week, or a month... A year!" Li Yunze suddenly sneered and asked, "or forever?" "Why do you have to force me?" He Yining leaned against the windowsill. If not, she was afraid that she could not support herself. "I force you... Ha ha, I force you..." Although Li Ze can''t turn back, I can''t turn back even if I look at the cloud city with Li Ning''s body He Yining''s heart has begun to bleed. "Now? I''m begging here, just like a scoundrel!" Li Yunze mockingly hooked the corners of his lips and looked at he Yining''s line of sight, which became more and more complex. Without saying anything more, Li Yunze forcibly took back his sight and dragged his heavy and weak body to the door step by step At the moment he Yining turned around, the hot tears surged out again, and his heart was so painful that it burst. Li Yunze opened the door mechanically and went out, followed by a ''Bang'' sound of closing the door. That sound was like a shackle that blocked the hearts of two people, one inside and one outside. The heart was aching with astringency. Li Yunze went downstairs and didn''t leave. There was a drizzle that would wet his hair downstairs. He looked ahead, calculated the radian, then turned on the flashlight of his mobile phone, bent down on the ground and began to look for For Li Yunze, the value of a ring in money is completely ignored. However, it was the ring he proposed to he Yining, representing ''1 + 1 = 1'', which was a symbol of love and family. Love is lost, home is lost Is his life lost?! ¡­¡­ The chilly wind kept rushing in from the open window, and occasionally raindrops naughtily drilled into my neck, cooling my heart. Why would she rather stand where she is? I don''t know how long she cried until a ray of light crossed from the outside and she turned subconsciously I saw a figure looking for something under the drizzling night light and hazy night light?! Why Ning''s heart suddenly pricked and held her hand on the window. Her mouth kept opening and closing, and she looked at Li Yunze looking for it bit by bit She wanted to shout, but her voice stuck in her throat. It''s raining outside all the time. It''s very cold on such an early winter night. Why would you rather hold the window, because your fingers are white with too much force. But even with such great strength, she almost couldn''t help but want to shout Li Yunze. Tears spilled out uncontrollably again. Why would you rather not look at Li Yunze looking for the ring inch by inch there and suddenly turned around. The man had fallen down the window and sat on the ground. "Wuwu..." He Yining took out his mobile phone and called Jin shaosi when he couldn''t stand the pain of suffocation. "Ace, what to do, what to do..." "What''s the matter?" The young master Jin suddenly twisted his eyebrows. He Yining sobbed and waited for Li Yunze at home. Now he said intermittently about looking for a ring downstairs. Jin shaosi was also surprised. He didn''t expect Li Yunze to look for a ring on a rainy night. After all, such behavior is not like what Li Yunze would do It is precisely because he thinks he will not do it. Now that he has done it, Jin shaosi is more worried. "Yining, can you hold on?" Asked Jin shaosi. "Wuwu..." why would she rather cry on her knees? She already felt numb with her heart tightening. Jin shaosi twisted his eyebrows and said softly, "did you really throw away the ring?" How can she throw away the ring? Just now, it was just an illusory action "You didn''t, did you?" Jin shaosi knows why Yining. "Now it''s an opportunity. Yining, it depends on whether you can hold back..." Chapter 1464 He Yining didn''t speak, but just listened to Jin shaosi. "Yining, if Li Yunze can''t find the ring, he will subconsciously expand his disappointment..." Jin shaoston felt that such words are too cruel, but he can''t help saying, "maybe it will be easier if you want him to leave." He Yining''s eyelashes kept trembling, "ace, if I never get it, I just feel sorry and helpless... But if I get it, I''m one step away... I lose it again..." "I understand that getting and losing is more unacceptable and heartache than never getting." Jin shaosi said softly, "Yining, everything has two sides." "Think about it, what you get is that Li Yunze doesn''t know the truth, and his sadness and pain are only temporary." Jin shaosi went to the window and led the city rendered by the drizzle under the night curtain. His voice was filled with a touch of unknown empathy and desolation. "When you love someone, you want her to be happy, even if you bear all the unhappiness, don''t you?" "Hmm..." he Yining wiped his tears with his hands, but he couldn''t wipe them clean. Jin shaosi listened to the cry from the microphone and gradually frowned. The night in Los Angeles is shrouded in dark clouds. Even if the neon is still bright, we can''t ignore the haze shrouded in the dark sky. Li Yunze ignored that his body had been gradually soaked by rain. He looked for it bit by bit and didn''t let go of any place. For Li Yunze, who can spend more than ten hours in the operating room and highly concentrate on minor surgery, it is not difficult to find a ring within the scope. But he didn''t find it until the morning came and the rain stopped. Li Yunze felt that he had never been stupid, stupid... He felt ridiculous. But even though he thought it was ridiculous, he didn''t give up looking for it But when the scope became larger and larger and the loss became larger and larger, Li Yunze suddenly began to doubt his behavior. "Li Yunze, what if you get it back?" Li Yunze squatted there, his eyes falling on the front, foggy and poor with low visibility, "if she is no longer yours, the existence of a ring is ridiculous, isn''t it?!" Li Yunze only felt desolate in his heart, which was incomparable to the coldness and dampness of his body. Getting up, Li Yunze looked up at he Yining''s home The window was still open, as if mocking his behavior from last night to this moment. His silly Ning, as usual, had already come down, didn''t he? Li Yunze slowly took back his sight and dragged his heavy body to the car because of dizziness Get in, start, leave. It looked as if there was nothing unusual except that he was wet. "Squeak -" Li Yunze suddenly stopped the car just as it turned out of the door of the community. Looking sideways at the door of the community, Li Yunze weakly fanned his eyes and did something he felt humble. He Yining has been sitting on the ground. The cold wind has already blown her body without any temperature. The sound of "Ding" crossed. He Yining instinctively went to get his mobile phone and opened the text message: Yining, I''m a little uncomfortable and can''t drive the car. Will you come down and take me back? He Ning didn''t cry in the room, so she didn''t cry again. Li Yunze waited for a long time and didn''t wait for he Yining''s reply. He mockingly hooked the corner of his mouth, crossed his finger across the screen again, and sent another text message: Yining, I was too impulsive last night, you want to calm down, I''ll give you time... Just don''t take too long, I''m afraid I''ll wait too lonely. Li Yunze doesn''t know what''s wrong with him. He obviously feels ridiculous, but he sends text messages one by one. But, every one of them has revealed his heart invisibly "You got off the plane yesterday. You must be very tired. Don''t come down to see me off. I''ll find a substitute driver." This is the reason why Li Yunze clearly knows why he would rather not come down and finds himself. "By the way, I remember the subject research of Luoda on Monday, which is very helpful to you." This is Li Yunze''s fear that he Yining lost his chance because he avoided him. "I''ll get your official card for you," Ma Guangming said. "When things are over here at Luoyang University, I''ll arrange to go to obstetrics and gynecology as an official listed doctor... Yining, you filled my vacancy in medicine." This is why Li Yunze wants to have a better relationship with him. "Yining, you can''t be irresponsible to me... Tease me but don''t marry me!" This is what Li Yunze was powerless to say to he Yining at last. Several text messages were inserted into he Yining''s mobile phone, but Li Yunze didn''t receive a reply. He Yining listened to the voice of the arrival of text messages and slowly spread out his palm. Inside was the ring engraved with "1 + 1 = 1". The red "+" is a little dazzling at the moment. He Yining just stared at it Last night, Li Yunze found the ring downstairs. She looked for it in the house. Because it was too late to put it away, Li Yunze suddenly grabbed her shoulder blade and the ring slipped off. It was so small that she fell under the TV cabinet. She looked for it for a long time. Slowly raised the ring to his eyes, why Ning pulled an ugly smile from the corners of his mouth, "Li Yunze, maybe... You can only be my dream. Only in the dream can I deceive myself." Time, I want to spend the first cooling in winter. For Huakang, Li Yunze has a high fever, which is still very serious. They all feel strange. After all, Li Yunze was able to allow his body to be like this. We really can''t think of it. Yanmiao went to see Li Yunze after work. "What''s going on now?" Yan Miao looked at Li Yunze with a bad face and asked with a wrung eyebrow. "Nothing." Li Yunze spoke faintly. "Li Yunze, Yining avoids talking, and you too..." yanmiao is a little angry. "As a friend, I can''t help you." "If she doesn''t want to solve it, did she help?" Li Yunze sneered at himself. Yan Miao rolled his eyes. "I''m surprised. You''re too sudden." "It doesn''t count." Li Yunze drank, "you should know that Yining came to me on the day of Yining''s parents'' car accident..." "And then?" Yanmiao said subconsciously, "it can''t be the accident caused by uncle and aunt chasing Yining!" Li Yunze didn''t speak. Yanmiao widened his eyes and opened his mouth because of surprise. "No?!" "Although I don''t know anything, the fact seems to be true." "...." yanmiao twitched at the corners of his mouth, and scolded the dirty in his mouth, "I really don''t understand. Who''s in the way and who''s in trouble? Why is it so difficult to be with you Then she turned angrily and left. As soon as she got outside, she left a message to why Ning wechat. "Yining, Li Yunze has a high fever of nearly 40 degrees. He''s confused. No one will let him get close and can''t take a drop... I think if you don''t come, Li Yunze, who is a fool, may be waiting for you tomorrow!" Chapter 1465 After hearing yanmiao''s words, he Yining didn''t even have time to think, and suddenly shouted, "stop!" Lu Fan frowned slightly, looked in the rearview mirror, pulled over and stopped the car, "Miss Yining?" He Yining didn''t have time to talk, but instinctively, opened the door, got out of the car and hurried to the subway station in front This time is the time to get off work. If you want to reach Huakang hospital as soon as possible, it is most convenient to take the subway. Lu Fan frowned and looked around. Because it was on the roadside and he couldn''t stop for a long time, he started the motor car and dialed Jin shaosi''s phone at the same time. "Boss, Miss Yining suddenly got off and went to the subway station." "What happened before?" Jin shaosi asked with a slight frown. "It seems that Miss Yining heard a voice message and suddenly shouted to stop." "Yes." Jin shaosi hung up the phone after answering the voice, changed hands, dialed he Yining with wechat, "what''s the matter?" "I..." He Yining just swiped his card into the subway station and suddenly stopped. The impulse at that moment suddenly woke up under the voice of Jin shaosi. "How''s Li Yunze?" Jin shaosi narrowed his eyes slightly. "Yan Yan said he had a fever and no one could give him a drip close to him." Why is Ning''s whole face tangled together, "burn to 40 degrees. If you consume it like this, there will be problems." She had no doubt that Li Yunze would have a fever. Even a doctor would get sick. It was so cold outside last night that he had been in the rain all night. He had little chance of not getting sick. "Yining, are you sure you want to go?" Jin shaosi asked, "if you go now, everything you did last night will be in vain." Why rather bite your lips. She naturally knows, but she can''t see Li Yunze torture herself like this "Li Yunze is not a child, and I don''t believe he will make such childish behavior." Jin shaosi said, "in that case, I despise him, and he is not worthy of my previous retreat." I have to say that Jin shaosi understands Li Yunze from the standpoint of men. He Yining is concerned about chaos. "Did you give Yining?" Seeing yanmiao coming in, Li Yunze said faintly, "she won''t come over." Yanmiao frowned and looked at Li Yunze. Suddenly, he felt that this man had become very strange. In yanmiao''s eyes, Li Yunze is an annoying Li Yunze who has made why Ning chase for more than ten years, but still can be indifferent and alienated. It''s also the teaching assistant in the class of Luoda. In the operating room, the talented doctor with excellent medical skills But regardless of any impression, it is absolutely incompatible with Li Yunze at the moment. At this moment, Li Yunze was like a young man who could not love, steady but sad, Qingming but with extravagant hopes. That is a contradictory combination. "I told Yining that you have a fever and don''t cooperate with the treatment. If she doesn''t come, you''ll be a fool tomorrow." Yanmiao told the truth, "everyone is a doctor. It''s very clear that if you don''t treat a high fever of 40 degrees, even the lightest one will burn your lungs. I''d rather not give up." "But Jin shaosi won''t think I''m so capricious." "What does this have to do with ace?" Yanmiao didn''t react. "It''s raining, but it doesn''t have anything to do with Yunze," he said Yan Miao helps her forehead, "are people with high IQ playing psychological guessing games?" Li Yunze didn''t answer. He just looked at the sparrow flying right in front of the window and was slightly stunned. Sparrows'' chirp ''jump, looking very lonely. After a while, another sparrow flew over, stopped, and took off with the previous one "If you can wait in place, it''s also good." Li Yunze said unconsciously. He didn''t know whether to say sparrow or himself. Yanmiao twitched at the corner of his mouth, "Li Yunze, this sad painting style of spring and autumn is not suitable for you." Li Yunze pulled the corners of his mouth, "yes, it''s not suitable for me." He looked back. "So I can''t go without treatment." At this moment, Li Yunze said so. But what he didn''t think of at the moment was that before long, he did what he thought impossible In the twinkling of an eye, it was Monday. He Yining is suddenly glad that he has been studying the violin one by one recently and doesn''t go home on weekends. Otherwise, her ghost appearance will frighten her. Jin shaosi sent he Yining to the gate nearest to the Medical College of Luo University. He glanced at the school gate, "is that ok?" Then he looked at he Yining. "As long as I''m in Los Angeles, as long as I''m still a doctor, I can''t avoid contact with him..." why Ning said faintly, "blindly avoiding is counterproductive." "Yes." Jin shaosi answered, "call me when you''re finished and I''ll pick you up." He Yining nodded and got out of the car. Talent got off and closed the door. He saw a car stop beside him. Then the window of the driver''s seat was put down. "Get in the car." He Yining didn''t move, but Jin shaosi had put down the front passenger''s window. The two men turned their heads almost at the same time and looked at one place in an instant. The air was filled with the smell of gunpowder smoke. Why would you rather stand between the two cars and swallow it involuntarily. "Get in the car!" Li Yunze took back his confrontation with Jin shaosi and looked at he Yining. "Yining, it''s cold outside. Get in the car." Jin shaosi said softly, "I''ll pick you up in the evening." "My fiancee, with me, I won''t bother president Jin." Li Yunze spoke indifferently. Jin shaosi smiled. "Li Shao is treating me as an enemy?" "When?" Li Yunze sniffed coldly, "that also requires you to be the enemy..." then he looked at he Yining again. He Yining didn''t want to confront at the gate of the campus. She smiled at the corners of her mouth and got on Li Yunze''s car. Jin shaosi looked at the car entering the campus and sighed, "Yining, I hope you are happy, but I''m afraid you''re getting unhappy..." he laughed at himself at the corner of his mouth. "Li Yunze is really your robbery. Happiness is because of him and sadness is also because of him!" ¡­¡­ Li Yunze parked his car in the parking lot near the medical college, but the people didn''t get off. "Will you calm down these days?" Li Yunze asked and looked at why he Ning. "Can we not talk about this first?" He Yining looked at the time. "It''s time for the meeting." Li Yunze made a self mockery across the corner of his mouth, "Hmm", and turned and got out of the car. Why would she rather go to the building? After only a few steps, Li Yunze held her hand. She wanted to break free, but he held it tighter. "Li Yunze..." Why are you rather angry. "Yes!" Li Yunze answered faintly. "Let go of me." Why bite your teeth. Li Yunze didn''t let go, but stopped and looked at he Yining. He raised a shallow but deep smile at the corners of his mouth, "Yining, it''s said that women are afraid of pestering Lang..." He paused slightly and said with deep eyes: "if you need me to feel the feelings of more than 6000 days and nights, I don''t mind... Chasing you!" Chapter 1466 Why Ning''s brain was empty because of Li Yunze''s words. For a moment, she was stunned and forgot to respond. When Li Ze''s instinctive reaction came into the medical college. In the conference room, the professors of the research group of the medical college have arrived, and the students who have been transferred have gathered together to say something When everyone saw Li Yunze and he Yining coming in, they all smiled vaguely. The proposal that day was a blocked news on campus, but people in medical school basically knew it. "Yunze, Yining... To pull?!" "Professor..." Li Yunze greeted with a smile. Why would she rather be looked at by so many eyes? If she could gladly accept everyone''s blessing as usual, but today, she really had no way. Secretly wriggled his hands. Li Yunze didn''t force it this time. He loosened it when he would rather break free. Such a move, everyone''s smile is deeper, and the ambiguity in the bottom of their eyes is becoming larger and larger. She is embarrassed to attribute he Yining''s behavior. Why did Ning zhe look at Li Yunze at the corner of his mouth? Just as he looked over, there was a trace of evil light at the bottom of his eyes. She knew he did it on purpose. Deliberately using such behavior, while swearing sovereignty, makes everyone naturally imperceptibly influence the relationship between them. "Now that everyone is here, let''s start..." the professor said, motioning everyone to sit down. This research is basically related to what Li Yunze said before about the research of radioactive drugs. Naturally, whether for Li Yunze or the school, Li Yunze''s participation is good for both sides. Time, the blink of an eye to noon. "Li Shao, sister Xue, have dinner together?" A medical student raised his meal card and said, "revisit campus life." "Good!" Li Yunze spoke when he Yining just wanted to find an excuse to refuse. Just when she frowned slightly, she suddenly came to her ear. Her voice was not big or small, but everyone around could hear it and said, "once my family Yining chased me at school and revisited the memory of the campus. It''s also romantic." Why is Ning''s face red uncontrollably? She bit her lower lip and tilted her eyes under the laughter of her younger brothers and sisters. Li Yunze likes the way she is angry and can''t hair. Of course, she doesn''t like her discomfort, but her delicate appearance at this moment. It is the meal point that each canteen is crowded with many people, especially in places with special dishes. "Which canteen has steamed eggs today?" Li Yunze asked. "That''s the one we''re going to..." a schoolgirl suddenly brightened her eyes. "Li Shao, you also like steamed eggs? Me too... What a coincidence!" Everyone was silent and looked at he Yining one after another. They felt that what the girl said was unintentional, but it made the atmosphere awkward. Why Ning subconsciously looked at the girl, her bright eyes were full of hope for the world, and her vitality seemed to let her see herself. "No, I prefer to eat." Li Yunze smiled and opened his mouth. At the same time, he didn''t forget to look at he Yining affectionately. "Wow, Li Shao, you spread this wave of dog food..." someone began to wail, "I feel I don''t need to eat lunch." "Oh, then you may lose weight well in the future." Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "Privately, I will sprinkle dog food from time to time." "..." he Yining looked at Li Yunze chatting with his younger brothers and sisters in the medical college, and his heart tightened suddenly. He is not high above others, but he has never been such an easy-going person. He just wants everyone to know one thing. Why is she Ning? She is his Li Yunze''s woman! ¡­¡­ While eating one by one, Xiao Yi, who is talking to Jian Jie in front of him, has a pair of eyes. He is a little stuffy. "What''s the matter?" Jian Jie looked back and saw that those who liked to eat delicious food were wilting and seemed absent-minded. Xiao Yi was adopted by Xiao Jing. She escaped the beating of her stepfather. In such an environment, and she is older than Jian Jie and 11, she has to see more clearly than ordinary children. Xiao Yi knows that he Xinyao is very attached to Jian Jie. Her identity, like the name given to her by her adoptive father, is the identity of guardian. If Jian Jie and he Xinyao can come together in the future, she just changed from one person''s guardian to two people''s. "I''ll solve the rest by myself. You and Xinyao have dinner first!" Xiao Yi finished, took his textbook, turned and left the canteen. "Is sister Yi angry with me?" One by one, some confused asked. Jane Jie smiled and touched the head of one by one. "She won''t be angry with you," paused. "It''s you. You''ve been a little silly since aunt Yining came to see you yesterday." "You''re stupid!" One by one hummed discontentedly, slightly drooping his shoulders, "obviously, my mother is with that uncle, but why haven''t they ever picked me up and seen me together?" Jian Jie dragged his lunch box and put the celery and carrots piled aside one by one into his lunch box. "What you need most now is to learn the songs of our new year''s party well. Adults worry about their own affairs." When it comes to the new year, one by one, his face burst into a smile, nodded with a smile, and then looked at the chicken thigh in Jane Jie''s lunch box and grinned. "If you don''t eat celery and carrots and always eat so much meat, it''s bad for your health." Jian Jie scolded, but he had clamped the chicken thighs in his lunch box into one by one. ¡­¡­ Jin shaosi sat in the restaurant attached to the winery, with a bottle of red wine and a cold Australian steak in front of him. "Boss," Su ruomin came over, "you checked the things you told..." Jin shaosi slowly raised his eyes and didn''t speak. He just looked at Su ruomin. "There was no special accident," Su ruomin said solemnly. "Where did that thing flow out from?" Jin shaosi gradually frowned. He wondered if it would be a misunderstanding. In that case, at least Yining didn''t need to work so hard. But "Because it''s not in the field, others won''t notice what it is!" Su ruomin said, "you can be seen by interested people. Naturally, you can see the usefulness of those pages of paper." Jin shaosi took back his sight and his face was a little heavy, "HMM." After a pause, "you go to dinner first. I want to talk about the next thing." "OK." After su ruomin left, Jin shaosi pondered for a while and called he Yining. "Ace?" He Yining looked at Li Yunze, who was talking to his younger brother and sister, and walked to one side under the tree, "what''s the matter?" "Yining, remember what I told you in Paris?" Jin shaosi''s eyes gradually deepened and said, "there''s no accident. I''ll do it today!" Chapter 1467 Why Ning''s heart suddenly ''cluttered'', and she looked back at Li Yunze At the right moment, Li Yunze also looked at her. He Yining almost instinctively took back his eyes at the moment opposite Li Yunze''s line of sight. "Ace..." he Yining''s heart is suffocating badly, "can you, can you wait?" "Huh?" Jin shaosi frowned slightly and was puzzled. "Yining, you should know that the sooner you deal with this matter, the better." "I don''t want him to be embarrassed in front of his younger brothers and sisters!" Why should I rather hang my eyes, suck my nose, press down the bitterness in my heart and say, "although I know it''s ridiculous, I can''t make him so embarrassed." Jin shaosi can understand why he Ning''s mood. They just proposed to each other at the Medical College of Luoda. Now, they go back to school together to study the subject. If the matter is exposed "Yining, I want to remind you," Jin shaosi has a deep love for he Yining at the bottom of his eyes, "now is the best time, even the best..." Jin shaosi wanted to stop talking. He felt that he was too cruel, although there was no other way. "Sister he Xuejie, let''s go!" Behind him came the cry of his younger brother. He Yining looked back and nodded. Then he said to Jin shaosi, "let''s talk about it after meeting..." he paused, "but not today." "OK." Jin shaosi answered and waited until he Yining hung up the phone before slowly dropping his hand. Lu Fan put a plate of fried rice just made in front of Mr. Jin and removed the cooled steak. "Boss, actually, wait, it''s good." Jin shaosi didn''t speak. He just took the spoon and sat up slightly. He looked at the plate of exquisite fried rice. Each grain seemed to be wrapped in egg liquid, which looked extremely attractive. "Things are done too intensively. Maybe the effect is not very good." Jin shaosi sank his eyes slightly, "wait... Maybe people can impulsively do something they shouldn''t have done only when they are disappointed in hope." Lu Fan sighed and looked at Jin shaosi with some heartache. He is the boss''s driver and personal bodyguard. He is the one who knows the boss best. He has never been rewarded for what the boss has done for Miss Yining. Next, even bear the guilt of self blame and heartache. ¡­¡­ Time, a little bit of the past. In the twinkling of an eye, the sunset disappeared in the West sky in advance in winter, especially because the weather is always cloudy these two days, and the night comes earlier. "Sister he Xuejie, let''s go first." Why rather pulled the corners of his mouth and the greeting person smiled, nodded and waved. Li Yunze is still looking at the sample pictures under the microscope, writing things under his hand, and talking to two medical college professors on the side?! Look at the time. It''s past seven. After the students left one by one, he Yining looked at Li Yunze again. Finally, he silently took his bag and left "Let''s stop here today and continue tomorrow." The professor looked at the time and said, "it''s very late. You''re so busy in the early stage that you don''t have time to fall in love. There''s still something to do when you go back to school. You can''t put it off." Teasing laughter came in front of several professors. When they looked back, they saw that there was no shadow of why Yining, so they curiously whispered, "where''s Yining?" Li Yunze glanced at the bottom of his eyes and said, "I guess I went to the bathroom." "Well," said the professor without much thought, "we''ll go back first. You and Yining should go back early... When you''re ready, you really don''t have time to be gentle." Li Yunze lowered his eyes and smiled, and collected the astringency in the depths of his eyes. After the professor and others left, Li Yunze called he Yining. He Yining has cancelled the call transfer and hung up indifferently when he saw Li Yunze''s phone. Then, the voice of a text message arrived, which was sent by Li Yunze: I knew you would hang up. Did Jin shaosi pick you up? Well, let me guess, you won''t reply Obviously, Li Yunze said something desolate, but he didn''t seem to care, pretending that nothing had happened. Why would you rather close your eyes and not let the suddenly dense water mist condense into tears. Jin shaosi looked at he Yining and said with a heavy heart, "what do you want to eat? Or go to my place to eat?" "Yes." He Yining opened his eyes. "I''ll live with you tonight. I guess Li Yunze will wait for me downstairs tomorrow..." Jin shaosi glanced at why he Ning was so sad. Most of the time, Yining knows Li Yunze. Because he loves him, he knows... Isn''t he?! Also because of understanding, she dare not say Early the next morning, Li Yunze did go. Why should he Ning wait for her downstairs. But as time approached, no one came down. He got off the bus and went upstairs. There is no popularity in the empty room. The quilt in the bedroom is paved and there is no temperature on it. "Oh," Li Yunze looked at the small bed that had been lingering for many days and nights and laughed at himself, "you know I''ll come, so you won''t even go home?" Li Yunze has gone to Luoda. Why has Ning arrived. The two looked at each other, one with a complex expression and the other with indifference. "Yining..." "You said give me time to calm down." In a word, Li Yunze choked and didn''t know what to say. "I''ll be very busy next," he said, not daring to look directly at Li Yunze. "During this time, just give me time to calm down, okay?" Li Yunze didn''t speak and looked at he Yining quietly. "After the research, I will give you a clear answer." He Yining raised his eyes and looked up at Li Yunze''s line of sight. Li Yunze didn''t want to, but he saw why he would rather beg from the bottom of his eyes, "is the subject over?" He Yining nodded. "OK, but I also have a request." Li Yunze offered the conditions after answering the voice, "you can''t deliberately hide from me during this period of time." "You can''t keep pestering me." Li Yunze felt a little tight, "yes." ¡­¡­ Time, in the cooling again in winter, blinked for a month. This month, Li Yunze and he Yining seemed too busy to think about other things with the deepening of the subject research. There is nothing strange in the eyes of their younger brothers, sisters and professors, but they know that they are superficial... Some things are changing, even if they are unwilling to face them. "Shifu, it''s estimated that this material is quite sensational... It''s absolutely big." "Yes, the elusive woman of the president of Jin''s group." The paparazzi Wang said with a smile, "from the exposure of his hidden marriage, strolling around the infant products store to the romantic tour in Paris, at this time, after more than a month, we finally have new materials, which is still a breakthrough..." Paparazzi Wang put a smug smile on the corner of his mouth and first went to see the questions of those who asked questions with money on his microblog. "Paparazzi king, did you say the big material to be exposed was exposed? When was it exposed?" Paparazzi King Click to answer the question: sorting, remember to pay attention in an hour! Chapter 1468 "The results are really satisfactory," someone said happily. "Wait until the in vivo culture is finished and come out to see the effect." "With Yunze, everything gets twice the result with half the effort..." the professor looked at the research results with satisfaction. "Alas, if there are more Yunze in China, medicine will certainly reach the top in the world." "If Li Yunhao is still there, just..." A professor sighed, suddenly shut up, looked at each other, and finally turned into a long sigh of regret. He Yining looked at Li Yunze around her. She could clearly feel the hatred that filled his body when he mentioned brother Yunhao But soon, he was completely restrained. "Yunze, Yining... Wait for dinner?" The professor asked deliberately, but it was obvious that he knew the two would not stay. For a month, both of them devoted themselves to the research. Although they were together every day, they had no private space at all. It''s not easy. The first phase is over. It''s time for two people to fall in love. Naturally, they won''t have dinner with them Sure enough "Not today," said Li Yunze with a smile. "Yining and I will go first." Li Yunze realized that it was not what the professor thought. Both of them were too devoted to their work and had no time to be gentle. Instead, he wants answers. There is no way to wait for a minute. He must get Yining''s answer today A month''s time, plus Yining''s previous trip to Paris, is only 40 days. For only 40 days, his daily waiting and expectation are the same as putting his heart on the oven. Count the time every day... And how did Yining''s 6000 days and nights come? When he counted the time, he always thought about how Yining spent these years and stuck to his feelings without hope. It is precisely because he thought of Yining''s persistence for so many years that he didn''t believe it. Because of uncle he and aunt he, Yining couldn''t come out. "Well, we old guys won''t delay your young people''s world." The professor looked at he Yining with a smile, "Yining, remember to come and send happy candy!" "Yes, we have to have it in the whole medical school." A professor joked, "Yunze, you two have witnessed the proposal in our whole medical school." "Necessary." Li Yunze said with a smile, holding he Yining''s hand, "I''ll go with Yining first." "Well, drive slowly on the road..." "It''s all right. Go back to school and walk around." "OK." Li Yunze looked at why he Ning. There was not much emotional leakage on both faces, but the "holding" hands were already turbulent. Li Yunze and he Yining left and entered the elevator. He Yining began to break free. Li Yunze didn''t let go. "Yining, the subject is over..." he looked at he Yining. "Are you still resisting?" Why did Ning zhe the corner of his mouth and take a deep breath, "Li Yunze, can you let me go first?" "No." Li Yunze spoke directly. They looked at each other and heard a "Ding". The elevator arrived on the first floor. At the moment when the elevator door opened, Li Yunze attached himself, "he Yining, you forgot, the time we agreed... Is up." He Yining''s heart suddenly "clattered", and her breathing became short. Although she knew it clearly, she wanted to resist even for a minute. Some students came in outside. They were not as envious as when they saw he Yining and Li Yunze in the past, or said hello directly, but looked at them strangely. Li Yunze ignored them and took he Yining''s hand and left the elevator Vaguely, when the elevator door was closed, the voices of the girls came. "Look at Li Shao and sister he Xuejie. Is the paparazzi King''s disclosure false?" "But they all talk about marriage. It doesn''t look like a fake!" "If I really step on two boats, I really admire sister he Xuejie. Two excellent men, unexpectedly..." "Such a woman is cheap, isn''t she? She hangs li Shao and goes to hook up with the president of Jin''s group. She''s not interested in other people''s money." "Maybe it''s Mr. Jin, but actually it''s a collusion with Mr. Li! Besides, the Jin group is rich, but Mr. Li is the only heir to the Li family, and the assets can''t be underestimated, okay?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Li Yunze and he Yining didn''t hear the discussion in the elevator at this moment. They kept walking to the parking lot. On the way, a girl occasionally watched them leave with strange eyes. Paparazzi Wang''s microblog has just been updated. People who know it are still in a small range for the time being. Just after Li Yunze left the campus of Luoda with he Yining, the microblog content gradually spread in the school. In the microblog, the heroine turned out to be he Yining, which caused a great sensation in medical school. "Li Yunze, everyone is very tired today. Do you have to talk today?" He Yining asked weakly. "Go home and cook?" Li Yunze didn''t answer the question, "let''s go to the supermarket to buy some vegetables and I''ll make them for you at home." He Yining frowned, "Li Yunze..." "Make a steamed egg in the evening, then copy two dishes casually, and put some noodles in soup?" Li Yunze didn''t seem to see the rising breath. He smiled and said, "or do you want to eat rice?" Why Ning twitched at the corners of his mouth. He couldn''t say what he wanted to say next. "I''ve been too busy recently. You''ve lost weight before I get the nutritional menu..." Li Yunze still smiled. "It seems that I have to fatten you first." He Yining looked at Li Yunze and listened to him saying there, gradually losing his mind She will be greedy, she will expect, although she knows it shouldn''t. One meal, just the last meal Why Ning''s heart was astringent, took back his sight, sat upright, secretly clenched his hand and said, "go to the supermarket to buy vegetables!" As soon as Li Yunze heard this, he immediately flashed a happy light in his eyes, "OK." In fact, he just said that. He was not sure that Yining would agree. He knew she was still uncomfortable. But as long as Yining makes concessions in the first step, there will be a breakthrough, won''t there?! Li Yunze pushed the shopping cart. Why should Ning follow? They walked to the food area just like the newly married couple However, the atmosphere is not as relaxed as before, and there is always a sense of alienation in the middle. Li Yunze chose a box of eggs and put them in the shopping cart. His eyes fell on he Yining, who was weighing dishes in front of him, and his eyes were deep. The cart passed by. When it was about to reach the weighing area, Li Yunze suddenly looked at the front display screen and stopped the news. News is silent, only pictures. There are several photos exposed above, a man and a woman interact like a couple, and the characters are Jin shaosi and he Yining. I don''t know what the anchor said. There is a row of words at the bottom "The paparazzi''s first person broke the news: a month ago, Jin shaosi collaborated with a mysterious woman on a romantic trip to Paris. In fact, he went to go through the marriage formalities." Li Yunze seemed to be hit by something and stood there motionless, looking at the TV screen all the time. He Yining came over with the good food, put it in the shopping cart and raised his eyes. Just when he wanted to speak, he saw Li Yunze looking at her. His voice was filled with forbearance under complex emotions and asked, "Yining, this is the answer you want to give me, isn''t it?" Chapter 1469 He Yining was stunned at first. Some didn''t respond to what Li Yunze said. Li Yunze looked at he Yining in this way, quietly watching and waiting for her answer. At this moment, with his IQ, he didn''t find such a groundless sentence. He Yining didn''t respond at all, even inexplicably. They looked at them like this. Passers-by looked at them one after another. They were curious, but no one stopped. "Mom, this aunt seems to be the aunt on TV..." suddenly, a child asked curiously, "but this uncle is not the uncle on TV?!" "Uncle may be brother." After the child''s mother explained casually, she took the child to continue shopping. Li Yunze still didn''t move, because the child''s words were too heartbreaking. He looked at he Yining''s eyes and gradually showed a sad mood. Why Ning subconsciously turned back and looked at the TV hanging above There are still news about her and Jin shaosi on it. Even if it is silent, the photos and news headlines are shocking enough. He Yining''s body stiffened and his mind suddenly flashed over what ace said to her last night. "Yining, are you ready?" Jin shaosi asked, "next, I''m afraid you will have a very hard time, tortured by yourself or Li Yunze." A month is enough to calm down. It took her a month to calm down and make up her mind. She burned down the log that her father wrote to her, searched his former bedroom and office, and even the wine cellar where he often stayed, and searched everywhere he could and could not find. Brother Yunhao''s death was her fault. She spent her whole life repenting As for Li Yunze, she won''t ask for his forgiveness. Even if she forgives, what can she do? Can the two of them really act as if nothing has happened, and then carry the death of brother Yunhao and be "happy" together? Will not be happy, they will have guilt in their hearts Let her suffer alone! Even if, perhaps, you can''t hide it for a lifetime At least, when she makes Li Yunze feel cold to her, even if he knows about Yunhao''s brother''s death, he will only hate her, but he will not suffer from love and hate as he is now. Slowly turned his head, he Yining looked at Li Yunze and didn''t speak. Li Yunze calmly looked at his he Yining, and suddenly a faint smile of self mockery overflowed from the corners of his mouth, "Yining, I suddenly felt that I was just like a fool." Why Ning''s heart was aching. She secretly clenched her teeth and calmly said, "do you want to go back to cooking?" "What''s today?" Li Yunze let go of the shopping cart and got close to why Yining. "Is it a breakup meal for you, or thinking of my pity and having the last meal with me?" He Yining didn''t speak. She didn''t dare to speak. She was deeply afraid of revealing her emotions. Li Yunze suddenly grabbed he Yining''s hand and walked outside the supermarket He Yining didn''t break free and let him go out, even if his hand was pinched hard. "Well, isn''t that the woman in the news just now?" "It''s quite similar. It seems that this man is not Jin shaosi?" "It looks like Li Yunze of Huakang..." Someone talked about it and took out his mobile phone to take this scene. Li Yunze suddenly stopped and looked at the man with his mobile phone ready to shoot, "did you shoot?" Two words, cold as if to freeze people. Fortunately, Yunze shakes his head and feels cold Then he took back his sight coldly, dragged why Ning''s footsteps and left the supermarket, leaving the people around him. They were silent one by one, and his body was a little cold, but it couldn''t slow down. All the way to the parking lot, Li Yunze opened the door and threw he Yining into the car. Why Ning''s leg was knocked down, and the pain and stuffy voice overflowed her throat and was swallowed back by her. Li Yunze got into the car. He glanced at he Yining with his eyes tight around the corner of his mouth, suddenly attached himself to her, fastened her seat belt, and started the car Reversing, the sudden brake stopped, and then it was like an offline arrow The speed is a little scary. It''s like a swimming dragon shuttling through the traffic flow on the road. Li Yunze went directly to the elevated road. After going down from the direction to the suburbs, the speed kept soaring "Li Yunze, slow down!" He Yining''s face is a little bad. Her body is tightly close to the car seat and holding the armrest. Her face gradually turns pale with the rise of the speed. Li Yunze didn''t seem to hear it. He kept pressing down with his foot on the accelerator, and the speed exceeded 250 in an instant. Why did Ning''s lips begin to tremble, her breathing even became rapid and heavy, and her heart even mentioned her throat. "Li Yunze, stop --" He Yining couldn''t bear the faster and faster speed and roared sharply. Her voice was filled with shock at the speed of the car, which was an instinctive response to death. "Squeak -" The screeching sound of brakes came from the tires rubbing against the asphalt road, disturbing the calm in the suburbs and startling sparrows parked on nearby trees. He Yining gasped. She stared at the front, and her eyes were completely frightened. The narrow space in the car was full of her heavy breathing and thunder like heartbeat. "He Yining," said Li Yunze, gently moving his temples, rolling his Adam''s apple, slowly leaning his head and gritting his teeth, "you explain!" "Explain what?" Why Ning''s breath is still unstable, "what do you want me to explain?" "I want you to explain that the news is groundless. Look at the picture and talk..." Li Yunze is gritting his teeth. "I want you to explain that those are fake and deceptive!" The voice of the low roar shows forbearance. Li Yunze has a persistent look in his eyes. He Yining''s complex emotions change in an instant. "Li Yunze, don''t make me think you can''t face the reality, will you?" Why did Ning sneer, "do you want me to explain why I stood up and went to Paris with ACE when I wanted to get the license with you? Or do you want me to explain that we have already got the marriage certificate when we went to Paris?" "You lie!" Li Yunze gradually scarlet his eyes. He told himself why he would calm down when given time. When the subject research was over, he would not let her go whether she was calm or not But now?! "Li Yunze, can you face the reality, please?" Why did Ning Leng sneer, "do you think this material today can really be exposed if it is not allowed by ace?" "Do you think I''ll believe you''re married after a scandal?" Li Yunze gritted his teeth, "he Yining, you have the ability... Show me your marriage certificate!" Chapter 1470 He Yining looked at Li Yunze and said slowly after watching it for a while: "you want an answer. My answer is, whether I am with ASI or not, Li Yunze, I can''t pass the pass in my heart..." He Yining didn''t lie, so there was no loophole when she said this sentence. However, because of Qu Weiwei''s previous affairs, why Ning''s acting skills let Li Yunze see that even if he knew it was fake, he sometimes couldn''t tell whether he was acting or not. At this moment, why Ning, no matter how true he said, in Li Yunze''s eyes, he was just acting. "He Yining, you have something to hide from me!" Li Yunze looked closely at he Yining, and his unblinking sight seemed to see through her from outside to inside. Why should Ning chuckled, and the indifference on his face made people feel cold, "if you think this can make you feel better, then you think I have something to hide from you." After sneering, why would you rather untie your seat belt and get out of the car. She knows Li Yunze. I''m afraid no one can understand how much she knows. Li Yunze suspected that she had something to hide from him. If she said no, it would only make him more suspicious And if she followed his words, he would doubt his ideas. He Yinren had not left the car body, but had been blocked by Li Yunze. Then he put his arms around her and imprisoned her between his arms and the car. Li Yunze looked at he Yining quietly. "Yining, whether you have something to hide from me or you want to leave, you can''t..." he shook his head, "you can only be mine in your life." He Yining suddenly smiled, which made people hair. "Li Yunze, what if it''s like Chen?" Why rather asked, with a sneer on his face. Li Yunze wrung his eyebrows. Before he could digest this sentence, he Yining continued: "if, like Chen Yu, would you still say that I can only be yours in my life?" The sarcastic words were not concealed, so that people could not hear whether she was joking or serious. "Yining, this joke is not funny at all." Li Yunze gritted his teeth. "You should also know very well that you shouldn''t joke with me about this matter!" Why did Ning hiss? The position of her heart seemed to be torn open suddenly. She couldn''t open her mouth to speak because of the pain, so she had to bite her teeth and bear it secretly. "You know that all the reasons are OK, but you can''t play such a joke on me with your big brother!" Li Yunze''s eyes were full of blood, not only because he Yining said it, but also because she used the big brother''s story to make a metaphor in order to leave her. "So," why would you rather endure the inner fluctuations and say with a sneer, "in fact, we don''t have to be together, do we?" The sarcastic words completely collapsed Li Yunze''s already tense mood. He Yining looked at him like a trapped beast and tried to pull the corners of his mouth. Just a metaphor, can''t you stand it anymore? Li Yunze, what would you do if you knew that it was my reason that led others to stare at brother Yunhao and finally had such a tragic ending?! "Li Yunze, I don''t know when I can come out..." why don''t I know my eyes are red, "but at least I can''t do it now. I don''t want to be with you." "I can wait!" Li Yunze roared. "Wait?" Why would you rather smile without any temperature? "One year? Two years? Five years... Or 6000 days and nights like me?!" She ''ha ha'' said, "I use youth to catch up, but you don''t have youth to wait!" Cruel words cut Li Yunze''s heart like a knife, but he Yining still bled. Li Yunze, see? I am such a woman. What you should do now is to slap me directly and say what you used to say to me most You wicked woman! "Beside me, you are not the only one who can choose..." he Yining took a deep breath. "If you wait, and finally I become someone else''s bride, you will... Oh!" His heart piercing words were too harsh. He heard Li Yunze roar. He suddenly pressed he Yining and looked at her with his lips The sudden kiss made why Yining''s whole body stiff. He could only stare at his face close at hand. The familiar breath filled the mouth. Originally, Li Yunze only blocked he Yining''s words in this way, but it was only an instant contact, and the uncontrolled current of the two bodies crossed the heart. A gust of wind came out and it was cold, but at this moment, the two felt hot. "Yining, you have feelings for me, don''t you?" Li Yunze said silently, "your body has given you the most honest answer, hasn''t it?" Why should Ning suddenly wake up? Her hands wanted to push Li Yunze away, but in exchange for his deeper invasion Crazy and domineering kisses make each other''s lips and tongues move and linger. Why would you rather be in a state of confusion? Li Yunze''s attack is not only physically irresistible, but also mentally and mentally irresistible. Why would you rather close your eyes and cover up the self mockery and desolation at the bottom of your eyes God, do you have to let me hurt and can''t support it before you give up?! ¡­¡­ Li Jinxi looked at the evening news and frowned slightly. After a period of recuperation, she is almost well now, but her face is still a little pale under her blood gas. "Watching the news of he Yining?" Chen Yu put the stewed soup next to Li Jinxi and pretended that they didn''t have a cold war. "I thought Yunze and why would rather have a positive fruit, but I didn''t think it would turn around." Li Jinxi glanced at Chen Yu and said nothing. He just turned off the computer and got up. "Jinxi, drink the soup first..." Chen Yu pulled Li Jinxi. Li Jinxi drooped her eyes, and Chen Yu hurriedly released her. However, the just instant touch made him greedy for more in his heart. "Jinxi..." "With Yining and Yunze, the paparazzi in Los Angeles can''t not be photographed once, can they?" "But the news never came out." Everyone is in the media industry. Although Li Jinxi is not in the entertainment industry, the doorway here is very clear. "The news that everyone dared not release before, why did it come out suddenly this time?" Li Jinxi''s voice remained calm. "Since the medical accident, Yining''s report is only about medicine." "What do you want to say?" Chen Yu was very happy. Although what Jinxi said had nothing to do with him, she hadn''t said so much to him for a long time. "Chen Yu, this news can be released. Don''t tell whether it''s true or false..." Li Jinxi said coldly, "you help a lot behind your back?!" Chapter 1471 "Help?" Chen Yi said softly, and then the corners of his mouth crossed astringently, "Jinxi, when you hate a person, will you press all the bad things on that person?" Li Jinxi was silent. With a self mocking smile, Chen Yu''s voice said sadly, "I just didn''t stop the disclosure. I was wondering if you would say more words to me because you care about Yunze..." Li Jinxi looked at Chen Yu quietly. Her encounter with him was the same as that arranged by God. It was love at first sight, and love came so violently. They only knew each other for one month, and then they established their relationship. After three months, they entered the palace of marriage hand in hand. For many people, their flash marriage, or the flash marriage in the entertainment industry, will soon perish But they have always loved each other. Gradually, even the people waiting for them to separate have become the blessings of envy. This man, she loves! However, because of love, many things can''t pass "You did say a few more words to me, didn''t you?" Chen Yu felt particularly desolate, "Jinxi, people are selfish... You are selfish and torture me because of your pain, and I am selfish because I want to communicate more with you. I don''t care what to do, will it cause any harm to Yunze..." Li Jinxi frowned slightly, and the corners of his mouth moved back and forth, but he didn''t say anything. "I''m like this now. Hehe, I feel ridiculous myself." Chen Yu lowered her eyes and calmed down her helplessness. "If you want to talk to your wife, you have to use your heart... Even if what you say to me is to blame me, I''m also happy." Raising her eyes, Chen Yu looked at Li Jinxi with complex emotions in her eyes. "Jinxi, the Chen family is almost finished. Can''t you really put down the hatred of the past?" Li Jinxi frowned slightly. Without saying anything, he took back his sight and left the study Chen Yu smiled. His smile was dry and helpless, and more of it was the sadness under the cool heart. ¡­¡­ The sky gradually dimmed down. The cold wind rustled and rushed into the skin everywhere, and the cold people''s hair stood up. He Yining took a deep breath and pushed away the Li Yunze who was bitten by her. She inhaled and couldn''t stop the dense water mist in her eyes. "Li Yunze, just think I''ve consumed so many years of youth for you. Let''s... Let go of each other!" He Yining said that, clutching his hands and turning around, he let his body get numb and walked towards the city step by step Li Yunze stood in place and lost his mind after going crazy. When he Yining turned around, tears poured out of his eyes and fell, he was completely awake. He tilted his head, looked at he Yining''s back and said, "he Yining, didn''t you ask me how long I could wait for you?" Why do you prefer to hold your hands tighter and tighter, and dare not stop your steps, but walk mechanically. "I''ll tell you..." Li Yunze smiled, even if his face was completely desolate. "I can afford to wait for 6000 days and nights... Even with white hair on my temples, I can wait until the day when you change your mind." Tears, big big ones rolling down, the wind blows, the ice is deep into the bone. He Yining continued to walk with heavy steps mechanically and completely closed himself in the dark world Li Yunze didn''t drive because he knew why he would never get on the bus again. In this way, he quietly followed behind he Yining, accompanied her, and "sent" her home. When he saw the light on, he took back his sight. It''s almost midnight. The night breeze was slowly, Li Yunze turned around, dragged his weak body and called Jin shaosi, "Heaven night, I''m waiting for you!" After six words, Li Yunze hung up the phone. Jin shaosi listened to the "dududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududu. Today''s news broke. He knows what will happen. Maybe some people will think he is selfish. He clearly knew that Yining''s happiness was Li Yunze, but he did not help solve the problem, but deepened the "misunderstanding" between them. Jin shaosi pushed open the door of the box and looked at Li Yunze, whose eyes were sharp and deep, slowly lifting his eyes because he came in. What if the whole world misunderstood him? No one knows Yining better than him. If this is Yining''s choice, it doesn''t matter if he is scolded one day after people know the truth! "Jin shaosi, I want to know... What happened?" Li Yunze stood up slowly and asked with gnashing teeth. Jin shaosi''s face was calm. "Li Yunze, I believe a rival in love will cooperate with you... From the beginning, you lost." "Believe you? Ha ha..." Li Yunze sneered. "Jin shaosi, I never believed in you, but Yining''s feelings for me." "Obviously, you are wrong." When the sound of "Hoo" came, Li Yunze directly punched Jin shaosi with his fist style. "Jin Yunran, you must be very safe, don''t you?" He snorted coldly, "I don''t know how much the insurance company will pay if it is destroyed?" Li Yunze frowned. It was obvious that he felt strange that Jin shaosi could still say this at the moment. "However, I''d like to know..." Jin shaosi slightly picked the corner of one side of his lip and looked like he didn''t deserve to be beaten. "As the only heir of the Li family of the medical family, if your hand is destroyed, should the Li family disappear into the long river of history "Ah..." Li Yunze suddenly roared like a beast. He didn''t give major Jin a chance to speak anymore and started to fight directly. Solving problems between men is always rough and simple. While hiding, Mr. Jin coldly stimulated Li Yunze with his words. He is selfish, but he loves Yining more. He was also heartbroken when he was sure that what he had done in those years was really Yining. But he held hope at this moment If, if Li Yunze''s obsession with Li Yunhao is not so deep, maybe he can try to let him find it slowly, maybe he can put it down and be with Yining. Even if we get stuck together, we can spend time killing that thorn, can''t we?! But he only slightly mentioned Li Yunhao, and Li Yunze completely lost his mind. How dare he say such a thing? The sound of something falling to the ground came from the box, and the waiters outside looked at each other. But because there was Li Yunze inside, everyone could only stay outside, and no one went in. I don''t know how long it took inside. When Li Yunze punched Jin shaosi in the face and Jin shaosi kicked Li Yunze in the chest, the two separated Confrontation! Men''s confrontation is full of wildness. "I can''t figure out why Yining suddenly became like this..." Li Yunze gritted his teeth. "I still can''t figure out when you came in." Jin shaosi wiped the blood spilled from the broken corners of his mouth and looked at Li Yunze coldly. "But at this moment, I suddenly thought of..." Li Yunze gritted his teeth, and all the emotions in the bottom of his eyes became a vortex. "Jin shaosi, is it related to my eldest brother?!" Chapter 1472 Jin shaosi frowned slightly, but it was only a moment, and all his emotions converged. He didn''t speak. He was quiet. The corners of his mouth even looked at Li Yunze with a sneer. Li Yunze didn''t pay attention to his ridicule, but said: "Yining made a metaphor today, and you seem to have a faint Temptation..." he slightly sank his eyes. "The most important thing is, what was Qu Weiwei talking about in those years?" Jin shaosi snorted and sniffed at Li Yunze''s words. "Qu Weiwei told me before going to prison that she cursed me for falling in love with Yining but not being together..." Li Yunze said slowly, "at that time, I just thought she was crazy and placed her hope on the curse." "But I followed Yining for four hours today. I kept thinking, why?" Li Yunze gritted his teeth. "Wouldn''t it be ridiculous if it really broke out now because of the car accident between uncle he and aunt he?" Before, just before they tried, Yining heard Tan Zhonglang say that, but they still tried. In front of the tombstones of uncle he and aunt he, he could feel Yining''s guilt, but still chose to be with him How could Yining, who knew what he wanted, begin to retreat because he sorted out his relics? The most important thing is that it was the day before they got the certificate. "Now, I may be able to figure it out..." Li Yunze''s eyes gradually deepened, but his eyes looked at Jin shaosi with complex emotions. "At the beginning, what was the so-called thing Yining knew, and uncle he and aunt he were afraid that she came to me. What was it?" Speaking of this, Li Yunze bit his teeth. These are his conjectures, but it is precisely because they are conjectures. On the one hand, he hopes to be confirmed, on the other hand, he is afraid to be confirmed Jin shaosi smiled, with some evil cunning. He looked at the flashing light at the bottom of Li Yunze''s eyes. As he won the control of the Jin family for ten years, he saw through Li Yunze''s tangled and complex mood. "Li Yunze, whether this matter is as you speculate or not." Jin shaosi''s voice was mixed with a sneer and a sarcastic smile. "If it''s true, can you choose to be with Yining, which doesn''t matter?" Li Yunze was stunned by Jin shaosi''s rhetorical question. For a moment, he forgot to answer. Jin shaosi smiled strangely, but under his smile, he was distressed by he Yining. Yining knows Li Yunze too well. Because she knows, she bears the pain she can''t afford. "But how is it possible?" Li Yunze suddenly clenched his teeth. "Uncle he, how could they participate in my big brother''s affairs? After all, they can''t catch up at all, can they?" Jin shaosi sneered and laughed angrily at Li Yunze''s words. "Li Yunze, these are your own guesses..." paused, "as for what reason, it''s not my consideration." The ambiguous words made Li Yunze''s frown tighter. "In other words, Yining depends on me and wants to be with me no matter what reason she has with you..." Jin shaosi has a proud and provocative smile at the bottom of his eyes. "I don''t seem to have any reason to refuse her approach." "Jin shaosi..." Li Yunze gnashed his teeth. Jin shaosi was unmoved, coldly took back his sight, didn''t say anything, rubbed the corner of his mouth with his fingers, glanced at Li Yunze, and turned away from the box. Li Yunze stood where he was for a long time and didn''t move. Jin shaosi''s expression and words kept appearing alternately in his mind. In addition, he Yining''s performance today plunged Li Yunze into a dilemma under the fog. "Yining''s escape must not be just the accident of uncle he and aunt he..." "If it''s true as I guessed, why are they involved in the big brother''s affair?" "But if it''s not for this reason, why is Yining so determined to leave me?" "Jin shaosi''s ambiguous words are obviously reserved..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Like a fool, Li Yunze kept whispering to himself. When he finally found that he Yining''s feelings about his eldest brother and his parents became stronger and stronger, his whole person seemed to be empty in an instant and didn''t know how to react. ¡­¡­ Jin shaosi got into the car. Lu Fan looked back at the bruise on his face and asked, "boss, do you need to deal with it?" "No." Jin shaosi took out his mobile phone and dialed he Yining. "Yining, are you okay?" He Yining sat on the sofa and looked at the proposal ring placed on the tea table. His voice was dry and dumb, and said with a morbid voice: "ace, I may have done something wrong today..." "Li Yunze is looking for me," said Jin shaosi with a heavy heart. "I tried." Why rather the corners of his mouth are astringent, "he won''t forgive, will he?" Jin shaosi was silent. Although Li Yunze felt very calm when analyzing things at that time, he saw uncontrollable resentment from Li Yunze''s eyes, maybe he didn''t find it himself. "That''s good..." why would you rather hang your eyes and pull the corners of your mouth with self mockery, "I should have been a stranger, but why do you want to reverse your fate?" Jin shaosi opened his mouth and wanted to comfort, but at this moment, he didn''t know how to speak. The night became dark and cold because of the winter. The gear of time is always rotating at its slow speed Some things, time will erase traces, and some... Will only deepen memory. Blues. Li Yunze''s eyes fell on the red wine glass, and the liquor gradually fainted and stained his sight under the light, becoming empty and out of focus. If Yining''s parents really have something to do with big brother, Li Yunze, can you forgive me? Can you choose to ignore this thing because you love Yining? It was like a magic spell, pulling Li Yunze''s thoughts. One side is the love for he Yining, and the other is the deep pain from Li Yunhao''s suicide in front of him The news about he Yining and Jin shaosi spread more and more seriously outside, as if no one was willing to take care of it. The people who ate melons didn''t know the truth and were jealous of why they would rather. "When will you take sugar, Dr. he?" "Yes, Dr. he... Last time, it was reported that you had a relationship with major Jin. I didn''t expect to get the certificate..." "When will the wine be served? We have to scrape together." He Yining went back to surgery to pack up things and went to obstetrics and gynecology. He was surrounded by a group of nurses. Song Tianye looks at he Yining as if he wants to see through the disguise under the smile on her face at the moment. Song Tianye comes forward, "the ward round is about to begin. Let''s get ready." "Why?" When everyone dispersed, song Tianye asked, "the person you want to marry is Li Yunze." Chapter 1473 Why should Ning''s mouth be astringent and look at Song Tianye, "how many people in this world can think about it and do it?" Song Tianye frowned slightly. Obviously, he Yining''s answer was unclear, "but you and Li Yunze have not..." "It''s over." Why rather took a breath and pulled down the corners of his mouth, "I packed up my things." Song Tianye quietly looks at he Yining leaving. The corners of his mouth move back and forth, trying to say something, but he doesn''t know where to start. He can feel deep sadness from Yining, which is a kind of powerless despair. despair?! Song Tianye frowns. How can Yining despair? This word has nothing to do with her. He Yining went to the obstetrics and gynecology department. The originally noisy news was suddenly suppressed. Even, the paparazzi king sent another microblog today, which made people confused one after another. The paparazzi king looked at Chen Yu and felt uneasy. In this circle, although he is famous for exploding materials that others don''t have, it''s not true that everyone dares to explode "Try Longjing before the rain." Chen Yu motioned. The paparazzi King pulled the corners of his mouth, came forward and took a drink from the cup. In addition to a little astringency and the fragrance of tea, he couldn''t drink at all for a person like him who has never been self-cultivation. "Good tea, good tea!" "Really good tea." Chen Yu''s eyes fell on his mobile phone. The page was paparazzi Wang''s microblog. He just sent one, which had been forwarded for more than 10000 and commented for more than 20000. The content of the microblog is that paparazzi Wang clarified that the news he got was wrong, indicating that Jin shaosi and he Yining were only visiting Paris, not getting a license, and there will be follow-up reports. "Who gave you this message?" Chen asked. The paparazzi king has a headache. "There are few people in the circle, and I also..." "Jin shaosi and why would they rather not be in the circle?" Chen Yu raised his eyes. "Don''t tell me such big stuff. You took it yourself." We are all understanding people, and Chen''s Huaye is a top entertainment media company in China. After forming strategic cooperation with the entertainment media established by the emperor, it has an important position in the circle. Paparazzi Wang is a paparazzi reporter. If Chen Yu wants to kill him, it''s just a matter of a finger. "Someone sent me an email. I don''t know the source of the email." Paparazzi Wang said, "but because the photos are authentic, I sent them." "Since a few months ago, you said you had big news to explode, which was also the news given to you by the other party?" The paparazzi King nodded and told the whole story. Chen Yu pondered and motioned the paparazzi king to leave. After thinking about it, he still dialed Li Yunze. "Where is it?" Li Yunze rubbed his eyebrows and said, "hospital." "Have a drink in the evening?" "OK." "I''ll have dinner with Jinxi. I''ll see you in blues at about 8:00 and 9:00." Chen said. "Yes." Li Yunze answered and hung up. "Dong Dong!" Just in time, there was a knock at the door. "Come in..." Yanmiao pushed the door and came in. Seeing Li Yunze''s bad face, he sighed, "this is the next operation schedule. There is an operation that needs you to follow up." Li Yunze took over the shift schedule, looked at the circle and signed in the back. "Are you okay?" Yan Miao asked with concern. Li Yunze raised his eyes and shook his head. Yanmiao''s heart is also heavy. In the past, Yining ran after Li Yunze, but now it''s the opposite, but he didn''t see how happy Yining was. "Is there any misunderstanding between you and Yining?" Yan Miao asked. Li Yunze closed his eyes and thought of Jin shaosi''s words last night. His whole head was in a mess. Seeing that he didn''t want to say, yanmiao didn''t ask much, but said with a slight sigh: "although it''s said that not every relationship can come to the end, I still want you and Yining to be together at last." Yan Miao paused and said, "Li Yunze, I don''t believe it. I''d rather leave you." "You think so, too?" Li Yunze pulled the corners of his mouth astringently, "so am I!" Since they don''t believe Yining will leave him, the question comes... What can make Yining decide like this?! Li Yunze didn''t dare to think down, for fear that the feeling of fear gradually occupied his thinking. "So, if you can work hard..." yanmiao said, "Li Yunze, Yining has worked hard for you for more than ten years. I hope you can also work hard for her, even if the result is still so melancholy." Yan Miao sighed, "I''ll be busy first." Li Yunze nodded and watched yanmiao leave. Then he got up, went to the window and looked out of the window Thoughts gradually sank. As the sky gradually dimmed down, Li Yunze didn''t know how long he had stood there. It seems that I have thought a lot, and it seems that I haven''t thought anything. Turned around, changed his clothes, took the car key, and Li Yunze went to the blues. There is no light in the private area, only the faint light projected from the public area When Chen Yu arrived, he saw the shadow shrouded in the dark and frowned slightly. That feeling, as if he was going to be swallowed up by darkness "Why don''t you turn on the light?" Chen Yu said and went aside to turn on the light. Although the sudden light was not dazzling, Li Yunze closed his eyes reflexively. Chen Xuan looked at Li Yunze''s face and slightly frowned, "you don''t look very good." Li Yunze looked at Chen Yu indifferently, "what''s up?" "He Yining!" Chen Yu said his name and obviously felt a ray of light at the bottom of Li Yunze''s eyes,. Chen Yu said roughly what he got from the paparazzi king, "the affair between her and Jin shaosi should be false." "I know." Li Yunze possessed himself, took the water and drank. "Who do you show this to?" Chen asked. Li Yunze raised his eyes and looked at Chen Yu. After looking at it for a while, he suddenly asked, "Chen Yu, I''m really curious. Why does Jin Xi Mingming don''t want to continue, but he consumes it like this... Just because you don''t want to divorce?" Chen Yu didn''t expect Li Yunze to ask this suddenly. He replied with a light frown: "it''s very simple. Jinxi can''t pass his own pass, but what happened in those years, except that I had a surname of ''Chen'', it has nothing to do with me." After a pause, Chen Yu continued, "I don''t divorce because I need time to let Jinxi pass the pass in my heart." He pulled down the corners of his mouth with self mockery, "but if I can''t afford to divorce now, Jinxi will never let go of himself in this life, and we can only live in pain." "To put it bluntly," Li Yunze said slowly, "you have nothing to fear, but the death of my eldest brother. It has nothing to do with you, but with your family." "Isn''t it?" Chen Xuan raised his eyebrow, "Li Yunze, people can''t be fair, and I don''t blame you and Jinxi for their resentment against me, but I shouldn''t bear that responsibility. It''s unfair to me!" Li Yunze was silent for a long time. He lowered his eyes without saying anything. He took his mobile phone and sent a text message to he Yining: Yining, I want to work hard for us. Although I don''t know if I can succeed, I always have to work hard to know, don''t I? Li Yunze knows that he Yining can understand the message in the fog. If the big brother''s affair is really related to uncle he and aunt he Li Yunze doesn''t know if he can forgive Yining''s parents, but he feels that if he doesn''t try to forgive, the two will separate. It''s unfair to Yining and the same to him! Chapter 1474 He Yining looked at the text message sent by Li Yunze and gradually lost his mind. The mobile phone screen was dim, and she didn''t respond. Yan Miao wrung her eyebrows and looked at her with a deep sigh. "Your face says you can''t leave. I don''t understand. What the hell are you leaving?" The voice woke up why Ning''s free thoughts. She raised her eyes and looked at yanmiao, "Yanyan, if there is a little way, I don''t want to leave..." "Then don''t leave!" "But if I don''t leave, it will bring great pain to Li Yunze. I can''t bear it." Why would you rather shake your head calmly. "What on earth would you think would hurt him?" Yan Miao doesn''t understand, "although Li Yunze I know is a little annoying, many times, I have to admit that he has extraordinary willpower." "If it is..." he Yining almost blurted out his words and held back again. Yan Miao rolled over his eyes, "OK, just hold it, hold it out of the internal injury!" Why rather drooping eyes, timely, the mobile phone screen flashed, and another text message came in. Split Li Yunze: Yining, just give me some time... There will always be a breakthrough in anything, won''t there? Why Ning''s heart suddenly tightened. At this moment, she looked at the message and wanted to rush directly into Li Yunze''s arms Li Yunze sent another text message: can you wait for me during this time? Be careful with begging words. Li Yunze''s eyes darkened, his fingers crossed the screen again, and another text message was sent out: you''ve waited for me for 6000 days and nights, just wait for me, okay? Chen Yu sat opposite Li Yunze, watching him texting there all the time, frowning slightly, as if he felt something? Chen Yu suddenly sneered, with self mockery and sarcasm. "Li Yunze, if he Yining has something to do with Li Yunhao..." Chen Yu''s eyes opened slowly, "that''s too dog blood." Li Yunze raised his eyes and looked at Chen Yu. His eyes were filled with cold. Chen Yu ignored and just put down his overlapping legs and got up. "Although love is not all of life, life without love is boring..." he lowered his eyes to Li Yunze''s line of sight, "think about it!" He didn''t say anything. He turned and wanted to leave After a few steps, Chen Yu suddenly stopped, thought for a moment, and looked back at Li Yunze. "Li Yunhao''s death is already a tragedy. Don''t create more tragedies." Chen Yu looked at Li Yunze deeply and turned to leave. He will guess why Yining may also have something to do with Li Yunhao. It is entirely because Li Yunze asked him questions and why Yining suddenly burst out of the scandal. But what Chen Yu didn''t know was that at the moment, Li Yunze himself was also speculating. Li Yunze looked at the red wine in front of him and didn''t drink it at all, but his sight was gradually deep Why is it true that Ning is with him now? Li Yunze took back his sight and sent a text message to he Yining: if you don''t reply, I''ll take it as your default... Wait for me! ¡­¡­ "He Yining, mobile phone has been in a daze for a night today..." Yan Miao make complaints about Tucao, "if you want to call Li Yunze, you will fight, I will not laugh at you." As she said this, she turned her eyes and her voice turned into a murmur: "anyway, have you been laughed at less since you were young?" "Yan Yan, do you think people can expect extravagantly?" He Yining raised his eyes and looked at yanmiao, "even if you know it''s impossible to wait, you''re still extravagant..." "Don''t ask yourself?" Yanmiao took the kettle and poured a glass of water. "You have been extravagant for Li Yunze for more than ten years, but you haven''t been extravagant in the end!" The rhetorical question made why Ning feel speechless in her heart. She suddenly thought, saying nothing and doing nothing, leaving Li Yunze to think and understand... Is it possible to get something in exchange in the end? No result, worse than now, isn''t it?! After separating from yanmiao, he Yining didn''t go home, but went to the vineyard. In the winter, the vineyard has been depressed and bleak everywhere. "Yining?!" Jin shaosi just came out of the fermentation room, "Why are you here so late?" He Yining looked at the bruises on Jin shaosi''s mouth that hadn''t completely spread, and slightly twisted his eyebrows. Jin shaosi subconsciously touched it, "Li Yunze did it, but he didn''t feel well..." Why should Ning suddenly gather his eyes and worry. Jin shaosi sighed softly, "it''s normal between men..." he said, and he Yining turned into the villa, "you look like something''s wrong?" He Yining didn''t speak, but handed the mobile phone to Jin shaosi. Jin shaosi drooped his eyes and looked at Li Yunze''s message in the message interface. Open "Ace, do you think... Does he know anything?" He Yining asked, "what does he know, but he can still tell me like this, can I ask for it again?" "Yining, if the final result..." Why should I rather hang my eyes and collect the self mockery from the bottom of my eyes: "at most, I''ll be sad again, lost again, painful again..." "If you decide..." Jin shaosi looked at he Yining deeply. "You know, I will support you." "Nington, I have to let you know something." "Huh?" He Yining looks at shaosi Jin. "Li Yunze thought it was the master who had something to do with his wife and Li Yunhao, not you." Jin shaosi said calmly, "if the result is good, since he can choose to forgive because he loves you, he may know that it won''t be too painful when it''s actually you." "However, what''s more likely is that Li Yunze may be relieved about the previous generation, but if it''s me, it may not be..." why Ning Shiran asked, "right?" Jin shaosi didn''t answer directly. His eyes stared deeply at he Yining. Looking at the little hope on her face, he slowly retreated and was replaced by pain. "But there''s a chance, isn''t it?" Jin shaosi stepped forward and gently brushed the hair of he Yining. There was a deep infatuation in the bottom of his eyes. "Yining, if you really want to, try..." he said quietly, "but if you fail this time, you''ll leave with me, okay?" "Ace..." "Yining, no one''s heart can be hurt all the time." Jin shaosi interrupted he Yining, "we can achieve extravagant expectations, but we can''t help being disappointed." Jin shaosi took he Yining, whose body had begun to tremble uncontrollably, into his arms. "I know that you are not willing to be Li Yunze. You even thought about it. Maybe you said everything, whether it''s death or life. Clean it at one time... Right?" Chapter 1475 "Ace, I don''t know if my decision is right." He Yining''s eyes were momentarily shrouded in water mist. "I''m afraid he knows I''m the one who killed brother Yunhao. I''m in pain, but I can''t see his humble appearance now." "I understand..." "I just want to be with him, but why is it so difficult and so many obstacles?" "Because fate played a joke on you." "So, I should fight against fate now, even if my heart dies in the end, I......" why can''t I go on? After a while, I gritted my teeth and continued, "I''ll die!" Jin shaosi could feel why his heart was bleeding at the moment. It''s a kind of Clearly know there is no hope, but can not stop their moths to the fire. The gears of time are slowly turning, sunrise and sunset, stars are changing, as if nothing has changed except the passage of time From early winter to late winter, there are not many days to usher in the new year. Jian Mo and Gu Beichen came back, but even if Jian Mo lost his life, he still had to protect his child. It was still lost or when he was about to be born. Jian Jie officially changed his name to Gu Yan. He said that in the future, he will be mommy''s milk bag and Mommy''s little Yan The warm-hearted son moved Jian Mo, as if everything had settled slowly with the event, but Jian Mo just seemed to recover very well. Everyone familiar with her knew that she was pretending to be strong. ¡­¡­ "Yining, we have a party this weekend. Do you have time to join us?" Obstetrics and Gynecology Doctor Liu asked. "Weekend?!" He Yining thought, "OK." Because the new year is coming, the music of 11 has entered the final stage of ensemble training with Jane Jie. The little girl has never done anything so seriously. Now she doesn''t come back at school at the weekend. "That''s the deal." "Yes." He Yining nodded, packed up his things and went to dinner, ready for the big night. If she doesn''t come back, she hasn''t been on the normal class recently and doesn''t want to be specialized all the time In the hospital canteen, he Yining took a seat by the window after dinner. On the other hand, most of the trees have no leaves and are bare, which makes people feel lonely. It is said that waiting is the longest river, because you can''t see the end Now he Yining has realized it. As each day passed, she was waiting for Li Yunze''s answer, but because of waiting day by day, she became less and less confident. A message came from wechat. He Yining took it out and opened it... It was a small group of her, yanmiao and Fang Zihan. Fang Zihan: I''m really going to die. You''re ready to pick me up! Yanmiao: what''s the matter? Is it really good for a man to sprinkle dog food in front of us like this? Fang Zihan: ah, Yan Yan, I''m really dying... Let me tell you, it''s better not to want a man. Really, it hurts both the body and the heart! Yanmiao: all right, all right, don''t be hypocritical here! Fang Zihan made a grimace: in this way, the three of us, now you... Hey, hey! Yan Yan, although I''m not a man in my real sense, it''s great to solve my physiological needs. After all, it''s free! Yining is also nourishing, just you Yanmiao didn''t speak. After a while, he avoided the important and changed the topic: when will he come back? We''re ready to pick you up! Fang Zihan didn''t notice yanmiao''s pause, but thought she was busy just now: if she was fast, she could go back years ago Fang Zihan thought about it and sent another message: by the way, I also saw Lin Nannan in this interview, but I heard that he returned to Los Angeles recently... Tut Tut, I tell you, Lin Nannan is really handsome now! It''s totally different from the little boy behind Gu Beichen and Li Yunze. It''s just a boyfriend! Fang Zihan kept talking about Lin Nannan. Naturally, he would also mention the previous things. Yanmiao always wants to switch off the topic, but Fang Zihan''s two goods are so happy that they don''t even quit the group of three to see the private words sent by yanmiao to her. He Yining just listened to Fang Zihan saying there, and suddenly felt a gust of wind passing through, as if it had cooled his heart all of a sudden. The corners of his mouth hung his eyes astringently. He Yining took a breath secretly, didn''t speak from beginning to end, and installed his mobile phone. I don''t know what the taste is at the entrance of the meal. At the end of chewing, there is only sour and astringent left If Li Yunze thinks it''s her father and mother, and this can''t be forgiven, what if she knows it''s her?! ha-ha! He Yining''s nose pricked in an instant. She hurriedly closed her eyes to prevent tears from flowing down. ¡­¡­ weekend. Li Yunze went to the cake shop to buy a cake before he went to Spencer. Li Yunze''s eyes gradually deepened as he carefully practiced the music there one by one "Eh?!" One by one, seeing Li Yunze at the door, the sound of the violin suddenly stopped, and joy crossed his eyes, "uncle?!" She put down her violin and ran to Li Yunze happily. Li Yunze lifted the cake in his hand, "I''m prepared to see you working so hard!" One by one, his smiling eyes turned into crescent moons, took Li Yunze''s hand into the training room and asked, "I''ve practiced all my songs. Xiao Jie is having a concert with Uncle these days. Occasionally we meet up. It''s a good match!" "Isn''t it?!" "Of course!" One by one, xiaoaojiao picked her chin, ate the cake and talked about the fun of the week. Finally, she didn''t forget to ask, "when will you and mom come to see me together? Or will you come to pick me up when I have a holiday?" I''m a little paranoid recently, because since I joined Spencer, my uncle and mother haven''t seen her together. How many times did Uncle Si come with his mother?! She didn''t know if the uncle didn''t like his mother! "Come next Monday..." Li Yunze smiled. "It''s also possible. You don''t need to wait until the weekend." "Really?" One by one, his eyes suddenly widened. Li Yunze smiled, nodded and rubbed his little head. During this time, he endured not to go to Yining, nor to send messages or call her He completely stuck himself in the air and found that hatred is not the whole of life. As Chen Xiang said, he and Yining are innocent... After all, they have nothing to do with them, don''t they?! "One by one, if..." Li Yunze, holding his cheek in his hand, looked at his daughter and asked, "you need to choose to live with your mother or your father. How would you choose?" When asked this, Li Yunze was a little worried. He hoped to give him alternative answers one by one. One by one slapped his eyes, thought for a few seconds and asked, "is that the father you''re talking about... You?" Chapter 1476 When listening to "Dad" one by one, Li Yunze''s heart broke the feeling of happiness, although he didn''t seriously call him Dad. This is his daughter and Yining, his little lover Do you want to let your daughter not have a complete home because of previous mistakes? He and Yining still have a lot of future and a lot of time to complete the family, so that brother''s regret can be eliminated a little bit, isn''t it? Li Yunze''s mouth was filled with a smile from his loving father. Nodding, Li Yunze asked, "what''s your answer?" "I still like you very much..." one by one slightly drooped his small shoulders, looked at the cake in front of him and thought seriously, "but there is only one mother." Li Yunze is a little nervous. His question is not a multiple-choice question. What he wants is not to choose one by one, but to recognize one by one. One by one raised his eyes, gently blinked his eyes, and asked curiously, "why do you choose? You and your mother can live together, so one by one can live with you, and you don''t need to choose!" If the phrase "Dad" just one by one makes Li Yunze happy, the answer at this moment simply makes Li Yunze feel that there is no past that can not be let go, not to mention the past that has no direct relationship with Yining. "Why did you ask me such a question?" One by one deviated his head, as if he couldn''t figure it out. Li Yunze looked at them one by one and said with deep eyes, "I just want to see if you want to live with me." "Oh..." one by one, I feel that why adults have such strange ideas. She has always said that she likes what her mother likes! After eating the cake one by one, Li Yunze listened to them and played the piano for a while before leaving. Instead of going back to the hospital, he went directly to the ''Lin'' jewelry customization store. The ring of ''1 + 1 = 1'' was thrown away by Yining, and he didn''t find it back. It''s an end of the past He wants to propose again. This time, he thinks very clearly and won''t give up. "It will take about a week for the ring to come out..." the designer said after roughly drawing the design according to Li Yunze, "the complete design drawing will be sent to your email tomorrow." "Good!" Li Yunze nodded and his eyes fell on the first draft design drawing. It is still the ring of ''1 + 1 = 1'', but this time, three letters of fancy English... Mly are added to the interface. My Love¡­¡­Y£¡ Yining is also a medicine, which represents the two most important things in Li Yunze''s life, medicine and Yining! "If Li Shao has no other orders, let''s contact online later." Li Yunze answered and got up and left Lin''s private order. Sitting in the car, Li Yunze''s mouth overflowed with a shallow smile, took out his mobile phone, just wanted to send a text message to he Yining, told her that a week later, he told her his answer. When the SMS interface was opened, Li Yunze''s mobile phone was covered by a call from the hospital. "Li Shao, mayor Fu''s son was sent to the hospital," said the head nurse on the phone. "Director Li has entered the operating room. Let me inform you." Li Yunze frowned slightly, "I''ll go back right away." "Good!" Li Yunze hung up the phone and had no time to think about it. He quickly fastened his seat belt, started the car and drove to the hospital Mayor Fu was kind to Li Jiyuan. His son had congenital heart disease and had been treated in Huakang. He was discharged from the hospital only a few months later. Unexpectedly, he came in again. Li Yunze twisted his eyebrows and knew that this time he could only have a heart change operation... Even if the success rate was very low. ¡­¡­ He Yining and his colleagues from the hospital gathered at the farmhouse in the suburbs. It was more than 4 p.m. when she came back to the city. She was just going to pass Spencer. She simply got off and went to see one by one. "Mom..." I didn''t expect that Li Yunze had just left for a while. Why did Ning come, "you missed it perfectly again." "Huh?" He Yining didn''t react. He Yining was pulled one by one, and with his little face raised, he said, "that uncle has come, but he has just left." He Yining''s eyes flashed the same light. She knew that the uncle mentioned one by one was Li Yunze. "Really?" Why rather dry mouth pulled a smile. Nodded one by one, tooted his mouth, "you don''t come together every time, either it''s not the same day, or you miss the time... I almost thought you were intentional!" Why did Ning lie in the corner of his mouth and don''t know how to explain it to his daughter. Lying on the table one by one, his chin rested on the back of his hand and asked curiously, "Mom, will you be with that uncle?" "One by one," he Yining said with a touch of astringency, "if I''m not with him, will you lose?" He Yining knows that Li Yunze and one-to-one care get along well recently. It may be blood nature. For the same thing, one-to-one will obviously prefer Li Yunze between ASI and Li Yunze. One by one tooted his mouth, "why do you ask me strange questions today?" "Huh?" One by one, "the uncle asked me today whether he likes to live with you or with his father... Well, it seems that he means, if he is a father!" He Yining''s heart suddenly "clattered" as soon as he heard it. "I don''t really want to choose, so I want to live with you..." say my hope one by one. "Mom, you should like that uncle very much? But why haven''t you made a breakthrough for so long? Xiao Jie said that people in love can''t wait to be separated all the time..." He Yining didn''t listen to one of the words he talked about. Her thoughts stayed on saying one by one. Li Yunze asked her if she wanted to live with her father Sure enough, he still can''t forgive. Does he want to compete with her? In a low, muffled voice, He Yining''s eyes were red. He suddenly stopped the Tucao, and his little hand pulled him to make complaints about it. "I''m fine..." why Ning hurriedly took back her thoughts? She looked at them one by one, and her heart was already choppy. The violin teacher came in at the right time. When it was time for class, he Yining didn''t stay much because of his unstable mood. Just out of school, he Yining called Jin shaosi, "ah Si, what should I do?" Jin shaosi frowned, "what''s the matter? Yining, what happened?" Why Ning Shua''s tears fell down, "he really can''t forgive for such a long time... He said it was a little time, but more than a month has passed. Now he has come to ask one by one whether to live with him one by one... He can''t get out, he wants one by one..." Listening to why Ning''s intermittent voice, Jin shaosi''s eyebrows frowned together, "can it be... Misunderstanding?!" "How could it be a misunderstanding?" He Yining was a little collapsed. "He said it one by one very seriously..." She gasped in a hurry, her eyes were powerless, and her voice showed the collapse of worrying about gain and loss, "no, no... I want to send away one by one, I can''t lose one by one, I can''t! That''s my only..." Chapter 1477 "Yining, calm down!" Jin shaosi frowned. "Calm down, how can you calm me down?" He Yining screamed, "for so many days, he asked me to wait, but what I''m waiting for is to ask one by one whether I want to live with him. How can you calm me down?" She ignored the people on the road and looked at her line of sight, just like losing her direction. She kept turning left and right, didn''t know what she was doing, and kept whispering in her mouth. "No, I want to send them away as soon as possible... Now!" "Ace, please help me..." "I really can''t lose one by one. If I lose one by one, I really have nothing." "It must not be possible at home. Li Yunze has power at home and Beichen must not be able at home." "Brunei?" "No, no, no," he Yining murmured, "Brunei is your place. Li Yunze will guess that one by one is over there. You can''t..." "What place will let one by one, but will not let Li Yunze find it?" "Ace, what do you think is good? What is good?" "Yining, calm down!" Jin shaosi frowned, "where are you? I''ll pick you up." "No, I''m fine, I''m really fine..." why should Ning keep taking a deep breath, his face is pale and shameful, and he is blown by the cold wind and shows an unhealthy red, "ace, please help me think about it. How can I not be robbed by Li Yunze one by one?" Say, why rather uncontrollable cry. She squatted on the ground, holding her mobile phone in her ear, sobbing. "Wuwu... Ace, he won''t forgive me. Even if he thinks it''s because of my father and mother, he can''t forgive me. If he knows I did it... Wuwu... What can I do? I really have no way... Help me... I''ll hide them one by one... Wuwu..." The sad cry made Jin shaosi''s heart ache, and his face was full of haze. The hand holding the mobile phone gradually exerted itself, making a "quack" sound, and Jin shaosi''s eyes burst out with terrible anger. Li Yunze, did you let Yining wait until such a result? Is to defeat her completely. Don''t you have any faith? Mr. Jin turned and walked out of the office. ¡°Boss£¡¡± "To Spencer..." Jin shaosi never hung up, comforting he Yining on the phone. However, in the waiting, I gradually despair again, and suddenly fall into the fear of being robbed one by one. Why should I rather not listen to anything. "I want to send away one by one, I want to hide... Sobbing..." Jin shaosi closed his eyes, gritted his teeth and said, "OK, I''ll arrange it now. At the latest tomorrow, I''ll arrange it properly so that Li Yunze can''t find it." His voice was full of suppressed anger. "Yining, believe me, I will handle it well... As long as the matter between you and Li Yunze is not solved, I promise he will not find one by one." "OK..." He Yining choked and answered. Although she heard Jin shaosi''s guarantee, she couldn''t get back her collapsed mood. One by one, they were sent away silently. Early the next morning, he Yining went to pick up one by one and said he didn''t come back after asking for leave from school. When the school received the notice, it was told to drop out one by one. Because why Ning picked up one by one, and she said she would drop out one by one. As the child''s mother, the school has no right to stop it. When Li Yunze received a call from the school, some didn''t respond, "what did you say?" "Li Yao didn''t go through the formalities yesterday. He Xinshao didn''t go back." "Why didn''t you tell me such a big thing until you dropped out of school?" Li Yunze ''Teng'' stood up. The school staff was a little confused and said: "yesterday, they just said to ask for leave. Who knows that they will come and drop out today..." One day is enough for a person to hide. Li Yunze hung up the phone directly and dialed he Yining''s phone, "did you drop out one by one?" He Yining was more convinced that Li Yunze wanted to compete for custody with her. "He Yining, why?" Seeing why he would rather not speak, Li Yunze said gnashing his teeth. "Why? Why don''t you know?" Why Ning''s voice is tight, "Li Yunze, I don''t want to tell you anything now..." The words fell, why rather directly hung up the phone, afraid of Li Yunze calling again, she simply shut down. Why Ning''s breathing is not smooth. At the moment, she is like a neuropathy, and her heart can''t be stable. "Dr. he, you don''t look well. Are you ill?" A nurse asked with concern when she saw why Yining coming face to face. "I''m fine..." why would you rather pull the corners of your mouth, "go and be busy!" The nurse nodded to see why he Ning looked a little nervous and worried. "The Department is going to send a doctor to the mountain. Let''s see who will go?" As soon as he Yining arrived at the office, he heard Chu Qin say something about supporting the mountains. "Director, I''ll go!" "Yining?" Chu Qin frowned slightly. "It will take at least ten days and a half months to go there. Is your time OK?" "I can!" Why should Ning hurriedly say. She was afraid that Li Yunze would come to her. Now she just wanted to escape. She didn''t want to see his disgusting eyes, and she didn''t want to argue with him about custody one by one ¡­¡­ When Li Yunze went to Shuya to find he Yining, the defendant told him that he had left work first and was ready to support the free clinic in the mountain area. Li Yunze went directly to Ma Guangming''s office, "why did he Yining go to the mountain free clinic?" Ma Guangming was stunned, then said: "she applied, I have no reason to refuse..." paused, "after all, the list is very helpful to Dr. he''s medical ethics, which is also a good thing." "Now, get back!" Li Yunze gnashed his teeth. Ma Guangming forced hard, "but it has been reported to the Health Bureau..." he pointed to the computer, "just now, it has been publicized!" As soon as Li Yunze listened, he really wanted to smash Ma Guangming''s computer. As long as it is uploaded to the public notice of the Health Bureau, it is finalized. Even for him, such a thing can not be removed at will, which will only bring a lot of negative effects to Yining. Li Yunze looked at Ma Guangming and gnashed his teeth. After the naked anger at the bottom of his eyes, he turned and left Ma Guangming''s office. With a bang, Ma Guangming''s heart trembled. "Is this two people making trouble?" Ma Guangming whispered, "this is a good thing. I naturally agreed to Dr. he''s application. Isn''t it all in your face?" ¡­¡­ Li Yunze drove to he Yining apartment. Sure enough, he threw himself into the air. He went directly to Ho''s winery and vineyard, and there was no one. Although it was expected, he Yining was not seen. Li Yunze was so angry that he put his foot on the car. Getting on the bus, Li Yunze dialed Jin shaosi. "Jin shaosi, you sent them away one by one... Didn''t you?" Li Yunze asked with scarlet eyes, "did you make a ghost?!" Chapter 1478 "I sent them away, but I didn''t do it." Jin shaosi said bluntly, "Li Yunze, why don''t you think about what you have done and what you have brought to others while questioning others?" Li Yunze suddenly frowned, "what do you mean?" "What do I mean?" Jin shaosi sniffed coldly, "Li Yunze, sometimes I really despise you. I''m naturally superior. You don''t understand the mood of a person standing behind me, nor do you understand that kind of hesitation and helplessness..." "Shut up!" Li Yunze gritted his teeth. "OK, I''ll shut up!" Jin shaosi''s voice was colder and his words were backward. He didn''t give Li Yunze a chance to speak again and hung up the phone directly. He has no obligation to remind him of some things. As a rival in love, he has too many opportunities to take advantage of them. But what?! Knowing that Yining''s happiness lies in Li Yunze, he made Yining suffer more harm because he didn''t make rapid progress. No matter what Li Yunze''s words to 11 mean, whether it''s a joke or really trying to compete for the custody of 11, Li Yunze doesn''t deserve sympathy for him at the moment. Yining is excellent and positive. But every time I meet Li Yunze, I can''t get through Once more positive, after the accident of the master and wife, they have also converged. She loves Li Yunze, but she is also one by one''s mother. Li Yunze didn''t give Yining a sense of security. Why did he feel that Yining''s whole world was within his scope? The more you think about it, the more serious Jin shaosi''s face becomes. Seriously, if he can, he wants to send Yining and Yiyi away directly, so that Li Yunze can live in the death of Li Yunhao and the pain of Yining and Yiyi leaving him all his life Regret! ¡­¡­ When Jin shaosi hung up the phone, Li Yunze directly burst out a foul language. He angrily patted the steering wheel and glanced at the slightly old family building, with a haze over his handsome face. Powerlessly leaning on the car seat, Li Yunze rubbed his eyebrows. He thought he could have a pleasant chat with one by one yesterday. Today, he was told that one by one was gone. His heart seemed to be blocked with a ball of cotton, and his breathing became heavy. After taking the mobile phone, Li Yun called Xiao Nan directly "Li Shao?" Xiao Nan was a little surprised. "Check my personal flight records." Li Yunze gritted his teeth. "He Xinyao, five years old, should have left Los Angeles today..." paused, "no, it may have left from cities around Los Angeles." Xiao Nan frowned. "Is it true that the cockroach said you have a daughter?" "Can you stop gossiping now?" Li Yunze''s tone is a little bad, "in addition, it may not be the name." Xiao Nan is the eldest of Wu Xiao. As the only woman in Wu Xiao, her eldest sister''s position is not because of her age, but because of her ability. Li Yunze''s words, she immediately analyzed, "Li Shao, a child leaves through special channels. If there are financial resources and contacts behind, it''s not easy to find out." "Then try it, too. Don''t I check it?" Li Yunze was upset because he also understood this truth. "I''ll reply to you when I have news." Xiao Nan didn''t care about Li Yunze''s tone at the moment. "Yes." Li Yunze closed his eyes, "Xiao Nan, I haven''t had time to tell her that I''m her father, do you understand?" "I see." "Trouble..." "You''re welcome." Li Yunze hung up the phone, looked powerlessly at the family building, started the car and left the community of he Yining. ¡­¡­ Meng Yi sits in the revolving restaurant of La tower with a newspaper in his hand. The meal in front of him hardly moves. [the Li family will also make contributions to the medical community, establish a drug research institute and launch the Al plan!] The length of the report is very large. Recently, there have been a lot of news about the Li family, all of which are related to medicine, and the government has also given the greatest support to this. Meng Yi''s eyes fell on the "Al plan", and his eyes gradually deepened. Such two letters, at first glance, he saw that they were related to Li Yunhao, although they were likely to be related to the upcoming drugs Aaron Li, Li Yunhao''s English name and Initials! Meng Yi slowly folded up the newspaper, picked up the goblet in front of him, gently shook the red wine inside, raised his glass, took a shallow sip, and looked out. The prosperity of Los Angeles is clear. On the Los Angeles tower, you can just see the Red Cross sign protruding from the Huakang general hospital in the distance. He has always insisted that Li Yunhao''s research has not been destroyed. It seems to be true ¡­¡­ For two days, there was no news of leaving the country one by one. Xiao Nan used almost everyone in Los Angeles and the domestic night gate, but he got nothing. Finally, she started some news channels. As predicted, she had a clue but no end. After hearing this, Yunze became more and more agitated. Because why would he rather go into the mountains? His mobile phone has no signal at all. Even if he is in a hurry at the moment, he is powerless. It''s not that he hasn''t tried to use the official direct satellite connection, but he Yining can''t avoid him now. When the mobile phone rang, Li Yunze saw that it was Gu Beichen and picked up Listening to Gu Beichen say that Xiao Jing arranged a girl in Huakang hospital, Li Yunze suppressed the irritability and made fun of it at will. Gu Beichen heard something wrong with him and frowned slightly, "are you in a bad state?" Li Yunze closed his eyes. In front of his brother, his voice was obviously tired and said, "he Yining sent the woman away one by one..." "..." Gu Beichen frowned, "send away? What do you mean?" "Literally..." Li Yunze leaned back on his seat tired. Gu Beichen gradually frowned, "what did you do?" "...." Li Yunze stopped talking when asked. Later, he thought about Jin shaosi''s words. Jin shaosi obviously meant that he didn''t give him a sense of security. Why should he blame her when he came out? He asked her to wait. During this period, he did psychological construction for himself If elder brother''s death is really related to Yining''s parents, can he really put down and be with Yining?! But also because he was doing psychological construction, and he felt that Yining''s feelings for him made him confident, so he didn''t contact during this period of time. He was deeply afraid that he would be influenced by his emotions and did something he regretted. But now? He still did something he regretted "Yunze, if you love this woman, you''ll put down that shit..." Gu Beichen sighed lightly. "If you don''t love, don''t entangle with her. How can you be a woman who has loved you for so many years and have to die?" Gu Beichen doesn''t know what happened, but he knows Yunze. If he doesn''t love, he won''t entangle. Only when he loves, he will tangle like this. The things that Yining did to Yunze in the past must be investigated, that is, the young frivolous, isn''t it?! But when it comes to love, you know what''s cold and warm... No one can do or decide anything for the party concerned. After talking about the girl Xiao Jing sent to the hospital, Li Yunze hung up. He looked at the road ahead and drove to he Yining''s community unconsciously Stopped at the roadside, Li Yunze looked at the community for a while and started the car to go in. He Yining, I''ll wait for you at home. I''ll see when you can hide from heaven and earth Chapter 1479 "Dr. he, Dr. he, Aunt Zhang''s daughter-in-law at the entrance of the village has a sudden pain..." a nurse came panting. "Dr. Ma is delivering the sheep of Uncle Li''s house. You can only go and have a look." "I''ll go and have a look." Why Ning hurriedly explained to the people around him, "he must transfer to the hospital in the city for examination. I suspect there is a tumor. There is no way to do systematic examination here. It is one, and there is no way to test whether it is benign or malignant." "But I want to go out..." "Let the people above contact us. We have ways to get in. How can we send the patient out?" He Yining looked at the nurse waiting anxiously and stamped his foot, "you contact first and I''ll go to deliver the baby first." "Good!" Why Ning hurried to the entrance of the village with the nurse. "There is an ox cart waiting in front..." the nurse said staggeringly. "Ox cart? It''s better to run fast." He Yining fished out the medicine box and straddled on his body. Ignoring his body that had not rested for a long time, he hurried to the entrance of the village. There are no potholes here, so there are no potholes here. The nurse looked at he Yining with admiration in her eyes. He Yining is the youngest and best patient in this free clinic, because she is not only familiar with many surgical diseases, but also the only obstetrician and gynecologist officially listed in this free clinic team. "Dr. he, my daughter-in-law is in severe pain..." Aunt Zhang shook he Yining''s hand uncontrollably, and begged on her wrinkled face. "Last time, I was pregnant last time, but the village medical treatment couldn''t keep up, so..." "Don''t worry, Aunt Zhang. I''ll try my best to make mother and son safe." Why would you rather breathe and comfort. "Er Gouzi is in a bad situation now. If anything happens to his daughter-in-law and baby, I will go home..." Aunt Zhang said, and her eyes began to turn red. "Aunt Zhang," he Yining looked at the room in her eyes and didn''t have time to comfort Aunt Zhang. For fear of delaying the time, he hurried to say, "I''m going first. Don''t delay it!" As soon as the aunt heard this, she nodded hurriedly and didn''t dare to say anything more. She loosened how to be peaceful. Inside, there were bursts of shouts, which made people catch up with their hearts. Aunt Zhang paced back and forth anxiously outside, her face completely worried. As time went by, the cry of tearing heart and cracking lung gradually weakened, and there came the sound of how to encourage. The medical level here is too backward. If you want to have a caesarean section, the conditions are not allowed at all. It is easy to infect children and pregnant women, and the consequences are also unpredictable. "Dr. he, what should I do now?" The nurse asked anxiously, "obviously, the fetal position is correct. Everything was normal before the examination. How could it..." He Yining didn''t have time to explain anything to the nurse, but continued to encourage the pregnant woman and ask her how to breathe to adjust her state. "Come out..." the nurse shouted in surprise. As soon as Aunt Zhang outside listened, she suddenly stopped, and many expressions flashed on her whole face. Surprise, surprise, expectation... Mixed with worry. After a while, Aunt Zhang suddenly whispered, "child... Why is there no crying?!" As soon as she spoke, there came the faint voice of the nurse. "Dr. he, what should I do now?" The nurse took a simple oxygen equipment to supply oxygen to the child, and her face became bad because of anxiety. After he Yining handled the pregnant woman, he swallowed secretly, took out the walkie talkie and told the team leader the situation. "Doctor he, the current situation is that no matter the child or the patient you said before, we can''t send them out of the mountain as soon as possible..." the leader said, "the mountain road is bumpy. Even if there is a car, I''m afraid..." The team leader didn''t continue to say the following words, but he Yining was clear. What he wants to say is that no matter the patients she saw before or the newly born children, there will be irreparable accidents on the road. "Is there no other way?" Why should Ning''s voice be suppressed, "for example, helicopter!" The team leader was silent. "Dr. he, the medical helicopter needs to apply. Even if it''s special, I''m afraid it will be as soon as tomorrow afternoon." "That''s not..." why should Ning bite his teeth? He didn''t continue to say what he just took off. He just looked at the newborn baby who was pale because of dyspnea with a choking voice. "We can wait, but patients and children can''t wait." "Doctor... Doctor..." the pregnant woman looked at he Yining with illusory eyes at the right time, and her tears overflowed, "please... Please help... Help... My child... Please..." Such a voice, at this moment, gouged out the heart of he Yining and the nurse like a knife. Because of the backward medical level and the lack of regular roads to the mountains, many people here are sad and desperate for the hope of the world again and again. He Yining''s tears suddenly wet her eyes. She is a mother. She knows too well that the mother wants to keep her child''s mood. Gritting his teeth, he Yining looked at the pregnant woman and said to the team leader in the walkie talkie: "team leader, I ask for satellite communication, now!" The team leader didn''t know why she would rather do anything, but thinking that she was going to find a way, he agreed, "I''ll arrange someone to connect." He Yining looked at the nurse, "observe the situation at any time and tell me." "Good!" He Yining put down the walkie talkie to the nurse and ran to the temporary main control center without paying attention to anything When she arrived at the main control tent, he Yining only felt dizzy for the first time. She hurriedly held the pole on one side, gasped, closed her eyes and calmed down. Then she swallowed hard, opened her tired eyes, and carried her lead filled legs into the tent. "Is it connected?" Why would you rather gasp. The leader nodded. He Yining went to the dial-up telephone, sat down, picked up the microphone and clenched it, then quickly dialed the number out ¡­¡­ Li Yunze forked at the belt with one hand and looked at the steamed eggs in the pot. He suddenly felt very interesting. Even if he Yining waited at home, he steamed an egg every day. He imagined that when she came back, there would be a bowl of steamed eggs to eat when she pushed the door. He would be moved and fall directly in his arms. It turns out that fantasy has nothing to do with your fucking age. With a slight sigh, Li Yunze put down his hand, turned off the fire and turned out of the kitchen. At the right time, the mobile phone rang on the tea table. He walked over and picked it up. Seeing that it was a strange number, he frowned slightly and picked it up. "Who?" He Yining took a deep breath and said, "it''s me." Li Yunze''s eyes suddenly brightened, "he Yining, you......" he suddenly paused and his eyes were deep, "take the initiative to contact me. What''s the matter?" "I have some situations here. A patient is in urgent need of chest examination and a newborn baby needs to enter the incubator." Why should I rather ignore others and say, "normal procedures, they can''t make it." "Ask me for help?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "Why should I help?" "..." why would you rather bite your teeth? "You are also a doctor!" "I can''t save all the patients, either." Li Yunze''s words are somewhat indifferent, but they are also true. He Yining took a deep breath and knew what Li Yunze was thinking. "Then you say, what do you want?" Li Yunze was silent. He wanted to ask one by one, but when the words came to his mouth, he swallowed them back. One is their daughter. It''s Yining''s sense of security, not his chip. "I''ll wait for you to come back. Don''t run away!" Li Yunze said, "Yining, can you do it?" Chapter 1480 He Yining didn''t expect that Li Yunze''s condition was this. For a while, some people couldn''t react. "Good!" He Yining didn''t dare to delay any more and hurriedly said, "I agree. You should arrange it quickly." "Wait!" Li Ze said, "don''t ask me anything else." "Yes." Why should I hasten to answer. She took the microphone and listened to the sound of Li Yunze''s fingers beating on the computer keyboard and the sound of the medical helicopter dispatched through the video. She kept screwing her eyebrows and relaxed slightly. After Li Yunze arranged, "Yining..." "I am!" He Yining answered. Li Yunze gently fanned his eyes, thought about it, and asked, "Why are you looking for me?" His voice showed a trace of unknown tension, "major Jin also has this ability." "But he can''t handle and arrange the patients correctly." Why should I rather smile at the corners of my mouth and have a sour nose, "I can''t let patients and newborn children lose the fastest and direct treatment opportunities for my personal reasons." The helicopter dispatched by Li Yunze will have first-aid measures and accompanying medical staff, which Jin shaosi can''t do. In front of great love, all she has can be put down first! This is professional ethics and her original intention of choosing the medical department Why Ning''s eyes turned red in an instant. She bit her lips and forced her tears back, but her voice was choked and said, "I promise you, I won''t go back. I''ll see you when I go back!" "I''ll wait for you at home." Li Yunze said, "pay attention to your health, so that you can bring health to many patients." "Hmm..." why Ning answered in his nose and hung up the phone in a hurry. Li Yunze listened to the hang up in his mobile phone and naturally didn''t think the signal was suddenly interrupted. He kept holding his mobile phone for a long time before slowly putting it down Yining, I don''t know why you want to escape, but I know my mistakes and never bring you a sense of security. But at this moment, you moved me and made me proud. Li Yunze''s mind flashed over what he had said in front of the statue of Hippocrates in the Department of medicine of the University of Los Angeles. "Yining, Hippocratic oath, what impressed you most?" "Make every effort to take medical measures that I think are beneficial to patients, and can not bring pain and harm to patients..." Li Yunze lowered his eyes and raised a shallow smile at the corners of his mouth, "Yining, you did it, didn''t you?!" ¡­¡­ The helicopter left the mountain with a roar after picking up the tumor patient and the newborn baby. He Yining looked at the distant helicopter, and there was a touch of hope in the bottom of his eyes In this world, there are too many poor people, especially at home. There is a lack of access to disease everywhere. As Li Yunze said, it is a doctor, but there is no way to save all patients. Can do everything possible to leave this moment of life, she felt that as a doctor, she was not responsible for this profession. "Doctor he, I didn''t expect you to have this ability." The team leader sighed, "Alas, fortunately, there are special channels, otherwise..." He Yining took back his sight and didn''t say much about Li Yunze. The leader of the team is a smart man. He will not talk much if he sighs. In the next few days, we are still busy. The day before leaving, because of the seriousness and responsibility of the medical team, the people in the village wanted to take out what they could at home for everyone to practice. Even Uncle Li wants to kill a sheep. Finally, persuaded by the team leader, he said simply eat, and everyone was lively. "Alas, the baby''s tumor was treated in time, removed and in the repair period..." the village head held up the jar and said, "Zhang Da''s grandson has been saved. Thank you! Let''s have a drink instead of wine..." Driven by the village head, everyone thanked the free clinic team one by one. Suddenly, someone came running in a hurry "Good news, village head!" "What''s the matter? What''s the good news? Let''s have fun..." the village head said hurriedly. The man grinned with a simple and honest smile, "the phone has been unable to get in, and the county just dialed... Said that there was a large group that wanted to invest in building roads in our village! Building cement roads!" He laughed so hard that he couldn''t close his mouth and emphasized it several times. As soon as the villagers heard this, they were surprised and talked about it. "It was said that the cost of opening the mountain was too high and the population in our village was small. Didn''t the county say it was still under discussion?" "Yes, what''s the situation?" The man said with a smile: "this time, there is no need to discuss. The large group has a special fund and is funded by others. It is said that the slowest year will make the way for our village..." Such news is undoubtedly great good news for everyone. The backwardness here is nothing more than that there is no way to the outside world. Why would you rather sit on the plane and look out of the small window? Your thoughts gradually drift away. When she arrived in the county, she asked, which is the big group that funded the road construction? Not surprisingly, it was the emperor group. Why rather gently fanned his eyes, is it Li Yunze? When she left here for free clinic, she naturally worried about the villagers here. Because there was no way, when the same thing happened in the future, she could only despair. But she is just a doctor. She has a lot of things and is powerless. Therefore, he did something she couldn''t solve and worried about for her. "The plane will land at Los Angeles International Airport in half an hour..." In the plane, there was a prompt sound from the flight attendant. He Yining suddenly became a little nervous. Li Yunze said he would wait for her at home. She didn''t know if he was here at the moment?! "Dr. he, I''m going to write the medical report this week. Let''s meet later." The team leader explained. "OK." Why Ning broke up with everyone and took a taxi home. Why would you rather stand at the door, hold the key and don''t open the door for a long time. Afraid to drive, but dare not escape. She compromised with the lives of patients and children. Although she is now out of danger, she has experienced the death of her parents and Li Yunhao and is afraid of the reincarnation of cause and effect After taking a deep breath, he Yining inserted the key and opened the door nervously. "Back?!" He Yining was startled by the sudden sound. Seeing the sunset penetrating the window and falling on the edge of the balcony, Li Yunze turned and looked over. Because of the light problem, why can Ning only feel his smile on his expression, but he can''t really see it. He Yining swallowed it secretly because he was nervous. Li Yunze came over, stood in front of he Yining and raised his hand Why should Ning subconsciously want to retreat? Li Yun sighed softly, "I just close the door." Paused, "you wash first, huh?" "What are you... Doing now?" He Yining asked. "I''ll know when you get on the plane." Li Yunze looked at her with deep eyes, "I said, I''ll wait for you to come back!" Chapter 1481 Li Yunze''s words didn''t have much emotion and were very calm. But it is precisely because of calm that he can better express his determination and persistence at the moment. He Yining''s heart suddenly trembled. A pair of eyes looked at Li Yunze and forgot the fatigue on the way. Some only had a deeper attachment to him because he wanted to leave. "Wash it first." Li Yunze knew that it was not a matter of a few words between the two. "I steamed eggs in the kitchen. I''ll eat some later, and then I''ll cook." Why should I nod at the corner of my mouth. She needs to face Li Yunze, but what she needs now is to do psychological construction first. Later, if Li Yunze asks one by one, how will she answer? The shower with warm water falls from head to foot, washing away all the dust, but it can''t precipitate why Yining''s messy heart. After washing, Li Yunze took the steamed egg out. "I''ve lived here recently, and I can make a bowl when I''m here..." he raised his eyes and stared deeply at he Yining. "I know you won''t come back, but I''m always dreaming. It may suddenly appear." Why Ning''s heart began to tighten. She didn''t dare to look at Li Yunze''s eyes. She was afraid that she began to have hope again, and then followed by more disappointment. "I''ll cook first." Li Yunze said with a smile, got up and went to the kitchen. He Yining listened to the movement in the kitchen. It was clearly his favorite steamed egg. It was smooth and delicate into his mouth, but now it felt sour. He quickly sucked his nose. Why would he rather not let himself overflow his sadness. Li Yunze cooked a very simple meal with a homely taste. "Just got off the plane, I guess I didn''t have any appetite. I didn''t make anything greasy and light." Li Yunze put a bowl of rice in front of he Yining and said with a smile, "don''t be too moved." He Yining looked at such Li Yunze and couldn''t tell the taste in his heart. Neither of them mentioned the previous things. While eating, guided by Li Yunze, they all talked about why Ning''s free clinic in the mountainous area. "I asked the child and said that he could get out of the incubator. When everything is stable, he can send it to the child''s mother." Li Yunze said, "I have asked you to prepare some nutrients to bring them to the health center over there, so that the children can use them. If someone has another baby later, it''s no problem to make an emergency." "Thank you!" Why would you rather go to the corner of your mouth. "Yining," sighed Li Yunze, "is there only this intersection between us in the future?" He Yining raised his eyes and looked at Li Yunze with complex eyes. "Eat first." Li Yunze sighed quietly and mixed dishes for he Yining. He didn''t feel safe, so he needs to bear the consequences. Now, he is just worried that some things will be unpredictable because they are horizontal between two people. The ringing of he Yining''s mobile phone broke their short silence. She took it and saw that it was Jin shaosi. After subconsciously looking at Li Yunze, she picked it up, "a Si?" "Back?!" Jin shaosi stood beside Li Yunze''s car, slightly tilted his head, looked at why Ning''s house and asked clearly. "Yes." He Yining answered softly. Mr. Jin took back his sight. "Eat something and have a rest early. I''ve been busy for so many days. I''m sure I haven''t had a good rest." "Yes." He Yining still just answered softly. Jin shaosi was silent. He stood there with his cell phone in his pocket with one hand. His eyes gradually deepened and said, "Yining, sometimes we all need to be brave..." When he said this, the position of his heart seemed to be dripping blood and colic. "Ah si..." he Ning shouted and hurriedly lowered his eyes for fear of revealing his emotions in front of Li Yunze. Jin shaosi scratched a touch of bitterness at the corner of his mouth, "OK, have a good rest." He heaved a sigh. "I''ll pick you up to the winery tomorrow, huh?" "OK." Why should I rather answer the voice. Jin shaosi hung up the phone and slowly dropped his hand. When he turned his head, his sight fell to the position of why Ning''s home again. Looking at the soft light, Jin shaosi''s sight gradually blurred. Yining, what can I do to make you happy? I want to pull you away from Li Yunze, and I''m afraid to take you away If I take away and stay, there will be pain. How should I choose this multiple-choice question? Take back your sight and turn slowly Jin shaosi''s figure becomes bleak and lonely in the late night of winter. The dim night lantern covered him and gradually dragged a figure on the ground to another night lamp. The cycle of loneliness, only the shadow sitting with. ¡­¡­ After dinner, he Yining took the initiative to wash the dishes. She lingered inside for a while. As soon as she turned around, she saw Li Yunze leaning against the kitchen door frame He Yining was surprised by the accident, then bit his lower lip, and said angrily, "Li Yunze, if you have anything you want to say and ask, just say and ask!" She was choked in her heart and felt a little uncomfortable. "Don''t you just want to ask when you wait for me?" "You''ve been on your way all day. It''s not good for your health to go to bed just after eating. Let''s go downstairs for a walk and go to bed again?" Li Yunze looked at the time and said, "it''s cold outside. Just walk in the community." He Yining didn''t refuse, thinking that Li Yunze had to brew his emotions. Wearing cotton padded clothes, he Yining and Li Yunze went downstairs. Li Yunze naturally took he Yining''s hand. He Yining wanted to break free, but he gave her a tight look. He Yining gave up and let Li Yunze warm grasp her hand and pass the temperature to her "In winter, did you ever think that I would walk with your hand in the winter?" Li Yunze asked. He Yining was silent and said honestly, "I thought about it." "If only it snowed." Li Yunze suddenly looked up at the ink sky, which was dotted with stars. It looked like a sunny day. Why should Ning turn his head to Li Yunze and feel the unspeakable taste in his heart. She knew that he wanted to ask her one by one and that he wanted to make sure about Yunhao''s brother, but he didn''t say anything at the moment. Instead, she didn''t know how to face it. Drooping his eyes, Li Yunze tilted his head to see why he Ning "Yining, do you miss me these days?" Li Yunze stopped, turned to face he Yining, and held her other slightly cool hand into her palm, "I miss you so much these days when you leave..." He Yining looked up at Li Yunze and could not hide his deep infatuation under forbearance. "I come here every day except for some delay." Li Yunze said with deep eyes, "I''m thinking, why did we suddenly become lonely when we were so warm here?" Chapter 1482 He Yining''s eyes were red at once, and the water mist was dense at the bottom of her eyes. Gradually, it became hot under the winter night, burning her heart. She misses him! Not only for these days, but also for more than 6000 days and nights, when doesn''t she miss it? Why rather keep taking a deep breath in order to control and not let your emotions collapse. In those days in the mountains, she kept herself busy and became a top, because as long as she had a little leisure, she was crazy thinking of her. And miss, followed by the same pain as regret. "You miss me too, don''t you?" Li Yunze gently took why Ning to his arms, and then hugged her body, "why don''t you miss me?" Li Yunze gently rubbed his chin against the top of he Yining''s hair, gently softened the years, and increased the sadness shrouded around the two people "Sorry, I didn''t give you enough security." Li Yunze tilted his head slightly, put his cheek on the top of his cool hair and closed his eyes, "so I don''t blame you." Why should I rather close my eyes and keep shaking my lips because of patience. Such a embrace, in this way, easily broke all her, and the pain was to the extreme. "Li Yunze..." "Whoa!" Li Yunze stopped what he Yining said. "You don''t need to say anything. I know that you may not want to say at this moment." He smiled, "I just want to hug you. I just want to tell you what I think..." He Yining''s body began to tremble, and love and pain kept tearing her nerves. Almost, for a moment, she almost blurted out Li Yunze, do you know that it was not my father and mother who killed Yunhao''s brother, but me! Yes, she is afraid, not brave enough, and even greedy! She is afraid because Yunhao''s brother is Li Yunze''s belief and worship brother. She is not brave enough. She is afraid of more pain She is greedy, just because Li Yunze''s arms are so warm, warm she wants to die at this moment, and then keep her memory here. If not, one by one! Feeling why he Ning''s uneasiness, Li Yunze slowly opened his eyes, "go upstairs and rest early today, huh?!" Without waiting for why Ning to speak, Li Yunze had let go of her and picked her up with a horizontal "Li Yunze..." Why are you rather flustered. Li Yunze lowered his eyes, looked at he Yining with the faint light from the night lamp not far away, and said with a smile: "he Yining, when you are tired, there is someone you can rely on, isn''t it good?" In a word, he Yining was completely defeated. She closed her eyes and didn''t dare to see Li Yunze, for fear that she would be crazy and desperate to say that she was unprepared for his injury. Li Yunze returned home with he Yining in his arms and gently put her on the bed, "sleep, I won''t go today..." Seeing he Yining''s body suddenly stiff, he smiled and said, "don''t worry, I don''t just go to bed with you!" Why was Ning stunned, and then his face turned red. "Go inside and make room for me." Li Yunze lay down. "Although there is heating in winter, isn''t it better to have a personal meat heater?" He Yining knew that Li Yunze would not go anyway, and she was really a little tired In the morning, I left the mountain area, bumped all the way to the county, had a meal, went to the city airport, and then came back. Can be tired, but not sleepy! "Sleep!" Li Yunze looked sideways at he Yining, saw her subconsciously turn around, and her voice was in a commanding tone, "close your eyes!" Why Ning subconsciously closed his eyes and Li Yunze smiled. I don''t know if it''s because Li Yunze is around. Why should I be sleepy? But after a while, the breath becomes even. Li Yunze looked at he Yining, who was sleeping soundly and sweetly, and his eyes became more and more fascinated. He didn''t know love before, but later he did, but he was always on the strong side because he was confident and fearless. "Yining, maybe I can''t put down the big brother''s business at once..." Li Yunze raised his hand, gently touched he Yining''s cheek with his finger belly, and said softly, "but I''ll try to put it down." Li Yunze fanned his eyes. Under the soft desk lamp, why Ning''s face was obviously smaller. "With me, you don''t need to think about losing weight..." Li Yunze said painfully, "I''ve become your ''diet pill'', which is not what I want to see." But what can I do? I find that when I fall in love with you, I will selfishly want to be with you. Maybe the big brother''s business is a barrier in our hearts, but I want us to cross each other slowly Although it''s the father''s debt and the son''s debt, as Chen Yu said, it''s unfair for us to bear the affairs of the previous generation. You have no sense of security. From now on, I will slowly learn how to give you a sense of security If you are afraid, I will slowly find a way to let you know that I can face it with you. Like is a person''s thing, love is two people''s, I can solve it with you. Li Yunze lay flat, his sight fell on the roof, and he Yining was gently held in the palm of his hand. He Yining felt that he was slightly wriggling because of his actions, and subconsciously approached him. Li Yunze couldn''t help shaking a smile at the corners of his mouth. Turn off the lights and close your eyes. For so many days, he was lying here alone. At this moment, he found that he could be very happy. * Ho''s winery. Jin shaosi sat there alone drinking wine, his eyes turned to the window and looked at the sparkling dreams in the winery yard under the hazy moonlight. Tan Zhonglang sat down opposite. "Didn''t he say Yining would come back today?" Jin shaosi looked back and said, "well." "You have no past?" Tan Zhonglang was a little surprised. Jin Shao stun paused and shook his head. Seeing Li Yunze''s car, he didn''t go up again After competing for ten years in the Jin family, I never knew that I would be so tangled in the choice. "Sister Feng will come up." Tan Zhonglang suddenly said. Jin shaosi suddenly raised his eyes and looked at Tan Zhonglang, frowning slightly, "sister-in-law Feng?!" Tan Zhonglang nodded. "Although the town is very backward, the news of Weiwei''s imprisonment has been passed on..." paused. "Sister-in-law Feng contacted me and said she wanted to come up and see Weiwei." Jin shaosi looked at Tan Zhonglang with his eyes gradually deep, "a Lang, did sister-in-law Feng contact you or did you contact her?" Tan Zhonglang was silent and said, "Weiwei wants to see sister-in-law Feng, I..." "So, you decide privately that you won''t tell me until sister-in-law Feng is coming up?" Mr. Jin is a little angry. "Ace!" "Do you know that you have satisfied Qu Weiwei by doing so, but you may mess things up?" Jin shaosi twisted his eyebrows and said, "you stabilize sister-in-law Feng first, and I''ll arrange it later." "Sister-in-law Feng has gone to prison..." Tan Zhonglang said with a wrung eyebrow. Chapter 1483 Los Angeles prison. It''s past the prison visit time, but there will always be some accidents in places with interests in this world. Moreover, the person who came to see Qu Weiwei was only her mother. The people in the prison thought that they were not important. Some people also watched. The violation of yin and Yang was naturally carried out by luck. "Weiwei..." when sister-in-law Feng saw Qu Weiwei wearing prison clothes, her eyes suddenly turned red. Especially when I saw some bruises on her face, tears burst out all at once. Qu Weiwei sat opposite sister-in-law Feng, across the visiting window, knowing that her appearance at the moment was much different from that at ordinary times. She deliberately let her mother see. Only when she feels distressed will she think more of her daughter, won''t she? Picked up the microphone, Qu Weiwei looked at sister-in-law Feng and shouted, "Mom..." "Weiwei, why did you come in?" Sister-in-law Feng choked and said, "I didn''t believe it when I heard it. Why is it like this?" "Hehe, why?" Qu Weiwei sneered, "your daughter is too eye-catching and has no other people''s background and power. Isn''t it normal to come in?" Sister-in-law Feng frowned, "what happened?" Qu Weiwei said indifferently, "is it still meaningful to say that? Will you believe it? No, isn''t it?" "You mean..." sister-in-law Feng was stunned. Qu Weiwei gave another cold hiss, and didn''t want to say anything more. She deviated from her face. Looking at her daughter, sister-in-law Feng pulled her heart out, and tears welled up. She covered her hand and shut her mouth and began to cry. Qu Weiwei was a little upset, but she still comforted her. In her words, she was always mixed with hatred for he Yining. "I''ll go to miss Weiwei. Will you commute your sentence?" Sister-in-law Feng asked chokingly. "Even if I''m in prison, I won''t beg her!" Qu Weiwei is gnashing her teeth. "You''re here..." sister-in-law Feng looked at Qu Weiwei''s bruise painfully. She put her hand on the visiting glass and wanted to touch it, but she couldn''t touch anything. "Weiwei, anyway, wouldn''t it be good if she could come out?" Qu Weiwei was silent, and her hand holding the microphone was clenched. After a while, Qu Weiwei seemed to calm down slowly, gritting her teeth and said, "I put it in the box at home. There is a design drawing and a phone in it. Because the price can''t be negotiated, I''ve been hesitant to sell it to that person. When you go back, call and sell it..." "Huh?" Sister Feng didn''t understand. "I don''t know if I can go out. I thought I''d pick you up when the studio got up." Qu Weiwei gritted her teeth. "Forget it, there is a contract given by the other party. You can sell it according to the above price. That money will be my pension money for you." "Weiwei, do you really want to stay in there all the time?" Sister-in-law Feng was angry because she was worried. "Don''t worry, I''ll find a way to get you out... You have to perform well and reduce your sentence, okay?" "I said, even if you die in it, I don''t want you to beg for peace!" Qu Weiwei suddenly got angry. Sister-in-law Feng looked at Qu Weiwei and cried again, "it''s all retribution, it''s all retribution... If it wasn''t for the beginning..." "All right!" Qu Weiwei interrupted sister-in-law Feng''s words. What else she wanted to say was stopped by the prison guard. "It''s time!" Sister-in-law Feng was stunned and looked at the time. "Isn''t there more than ten minutes?" "I said it''s time..." the prison guard didn''t give sister-in-law Feng a chance to talk to Qu Weiwei, and motioned the guard to take Qu Weiwei away. "Weiwei, Weiwei..." Sister-in-law Feng looked at Qu Weiwei being taken away and cried. Qu Weiwei looked back at sister-in-law Feng and bit her lower lip. Without saying anything, she forcibly pulled back her sight. The sister-in-law couldn''t stop crying because she couldn''t stop crying in the corridor for a while. "Aunt, it''s late. Go back?" A policewoman came over. "There''s a car going back to the city. Let''s go together?" Sister-in-law Feng nodded in tears, looked back at the place of the prison visit room, dragged her heavy body and left with the policewoman After sister-in-law Feng left, someone called Jin shaosi, "Mr. Jin, the man has left." "What did they talk about?" Jin shaosi asked indifferently. "It''s all unimportant things," said the prison guard. "Oh, by the way, it seems that Qu Weiwei''s mother said she wanted to plead with Miss He and commute Qu Weiwei''s sentence." Jin shaosi frowned slightly. "What about the old society? Pleading can reduce the sentence?" The prison guard felt a little funny. "The sentence has come down. How can we say that the sentence will be commuted." "Nothing else?" Jin shaosi asked anxiously. "No, our people are here all the way!" "Yes." Jin shaosi replied, "from now on, Qu Weiwei will not allow others to visit." "Yes, I understand." "Hard work, free time to get together." As soon as the prison guard heard this, he immediately grinned, "sure, sure!" Jin shaosi hung up the phone and looked at Tan Zhonglang, who was sorting the wine in the bar. When they looked up, they took back their eyes and crossed the bottom of their eyes. Qu Weiwei wants to meet sister-in-law Feng. Although it''s human nature, why does he always feel something wrong? Drooping his eyes, Jin shaosi sent a message to Lu Fan: send someone to follow sister-in-law Feng. If anything happens, please report to me at any time. Lu Fan replied: I understand. Jin shaosi looked out again, thought about it, and said to Li Yunze. Li Yunze opened his eyes as soon as the phone shook. Hurriedly took it, picked it up first, and then looked at why it was peaceful. Seeing her sleeping very heavily, she was a little relieved, got up gently and left the bedroom with her mobile phone. "What?" Li Yunze spoke. Jin shaosi said that sister-in-law Feng came up and just went to see Qu Weiwei. Li Yunze looked at the time. It was more than 8 p.m. and less than 9 p.m. If you have just arrived in Los Angeles and are eager to see your daughter, what''s the time? "Qu Weiwei suddenly wants to see sister-in-law Feng. I''m afraid she won''t tell me if ah Lang didn''t want her to put down her past." Jin shaosi said. "I''ll follow up." Li Yunze understood what Jin shaosi meant. After hearing this, Mr. Jin didn''t say anything more and hung up directly. For Li Yunze, he is the opposite regardless of personal reasons or Yining. However, when it comes to Yining, he can only make constant concessions. ¡­¡­ Qu Weiwei went back to her cell. She sat on the bed and found that the mattress was wet. She is not surprised at such a situation. Although it is winter, today is a human rights society. In addition to being bullied by the same cell, the government will not abuse prisoners. There is still some heating in this weather, and it''s not difficult without bedding. Qu Weiwei directly took out her mattress and lay on the hard bed, curling up and closing her eyes Her purpose today is to ask her mother to sell the "design". Her mother won''t change money to buy a house, but she will take the money to manage it. No matter what the purpose of taking the money is, she just needs her mother to contact each other! Chapter 1484 Winter nights are always longer. The coming of the morning is always slow, with the morning light, showing laziness. Why did Ning youyou wake up, gently fanned his eyes, his thoughts slowly returned, and then remembered that he had come back. Look at the time. It''s past nine in the morning! Slightly frowned, why Ning subconsciously explored his hand to one side. There was a slight coolness over there, indicating that Li Yunze had already got up. Get up, why rather out of the bedroom, quiet space, in addition to her, no one else''s breath. Drooping his eyes and sighing, why would he rather go to the living room after washing, and see breakfast on the table. He walked over and pressed a piece of paper under the breakfast plate. "I don''t know when you wake up. I don''t want to eat the bread on the table. There are porridge and steamed buns in the kitchen pot. I have an operation in the morning. I can''t wait for you to wake up. I''ll pick you up for dinner in the evening. Don''t escape! Li Yunze." Why Ning stared at Li Yunze''s flowing words for a long time until the mobile phone rang. Suddenly surprised, why should Ning subconsciously look at the juice and bread slices on the table before he went to get his mobile phone. "Ace..." "Are you up?" Asked Jin shaosi. "Yes." He Yining said, "just got up." Mr. Jin looked at the time. "I''ll pick you up later." "OK..." Why Ning hung up the phone and went to the kitchen. On the electronic steamer, there are post it notes. "Inside, the three on the left are vegetarian buns and the three on the right are meat buns. Li Yunze." Why Ning''s heart is soft and sour at this moment. Her eyes were red and she bit her lips to keep her tears from falling. Such a memory seemed to pull her back to the past in an instant. At that time, she did the same thing for Li Yunze. He Yining took steamed stuffed buns and porridge and went out of the kitchen. At the right time, the sound of a short breath came. When she sat down, she took her cell phone and crossed it. It was Li Yunze''s message: I''m going into the operating room. When I go out with Jin shaosi, remember to have breakfast first! Why should I rather eat my lower lip, look at the breakfast on the table and reply: I''m eating. Li Yunze spilled a faint smile from the corner of his mouth, put down his mobile phone and went to the operating room. Change clothes, disinfect and enter the operating room. Today is a thoracotomy. The lesions of malignant tumors make the operation extremely complex, and the success rate of this operation is very small because of this. "Already anesthetized..." the anesthesiologist looked at Li Yunze. "Prepare for surgery." Li Yunze nodded and spread his hand, "knife!" The instrument ignored and put the scalpel in Li Yunze''s hand. Under the operating light, the people looked serious and their hands operated skillfully and carefully "Tumor resection, ready..." "The patient''s blood pressure drops rapidly!" Li Yunze''s words were not finished, but the voice of the nurse staring at the instrument came. Li Yunze frowned slightly, glanced at the monitor, then indifferently ordered what to do next, and let him set a ten minute countdown. Li Yunze handled it indifferently, and the two knives cooperated closely. The whole operating room was filled with a dignified atmosphere. ''drop - '' Long monosyllabic sounds fill a small space, but they smell of death.. Li Yunze stopped his actions and looked at the display instrument. After waiting for a few seconds, he closed his eyes and put the tweezers and surgical scissors back on the plate. "You make a death confirmation." Li Yunze looked at the two knives opposite. "OK." Er Dao nodded. Li Yunze turned and walked out of the operation Although he is a doctor, as he Yining said, he can''t save all patients. I thought it was light in the face of death, but every time I met a patient who couldn''t get down to the operating table, my heart was always filled with infinite melancholy. Human life is fragile. Sometimes you inadvertently pass away After the death notice was issued, there was a tearing cry outside, even mixed with the sound of abuse. As the chief knife, Li Yunze is naturally the first person to be scolded. Li Yunze is not angry. When people are sad and desperate, they always find a target to attack and try to get some comfort. Look at the time. It''s more than three o''clock in the afternoon. Li Yunze simply ate something and drove to Los Angeles prison. "Li Shao." The director of the prison greeted him with a smile. "Let me see the surveillance of Qu Weiwei''s reception last night." "OK." The director nodded with a smile on his face and motioned the police officer below to adjust the monitoring last night. Li Yunze looked at it indifferently. When Qu Weiwei told sister-in-law Feng about the design draft, she frowned slightly and watched it again. "I came to see it this morning. There''s nothing else." The director handed Li Yunze a cigarette. After being rejected, he took it back and lit it. "He also explained that all the reception time of Qu Weiwei has been cancelled in the future." "Yes." Li Yunze calmly answered the voice and got up, "trouble director." "What words..." the director pulled a flattering smile, "it''s not a big deal." Li Yunze nodded and left the prison after a few polite words. On the way, he called Xiao Nan. "Li Shao, he Xinyao has no news yet." Xiao Nan thought Li Yunze asked one by one. "No more." Li Yunze said. "No more?" Xiao Nan was a little surprised. "It''s my daughter. No matter where it is, it''s also my daughter. It can''t be someone else''s home." Li Yunze said, "you first go to xiaqima Town, Qu Weiwei''s mother''s home to find a jewelry design drawing, a contract and the other party''s contact number..." "When?" "The sooner the better." "Then I''ll let Xiao Yu pass." Xiao Nan said, "I''m still on the beach." "Dragon boss and warmth..." "It''s not bad at present, but some things only the parties themselves know." Xiao Nan shrugged. "Yes." Li Yunze didn''t continue to ask. After what he Yining did, he knew very well that love was really something that others couldn''t understand. Only the cold and the warm knew it. ¡­¡­ "Ace, are you all right?" He Yining asked. Jin shaosi took out his mobile phone and showed him a picture. "This was sent yesterday. She has strong adaptability. Maybe you scared her when you sent her away. For so many days, I didn''t ask you why you suddenly sent her to school abroad." He Yining was astringent for a while. He looked at the cheerful smile one by one and felt that he was really a failure. "Ace, when I was in the mountains, I sometimes thought that although one by one is my only one, I shouldn''t be so selfish..." he Yining held his breath and took a deep breath with some red eyes. "I''m just afraid of losing it all." "I understand..." Jin shaosi looked at he Yining with burning eyes. After a while, he asked, "Yining, Li Yunze has made you confused again, haven''t you?" Chapter 1485 Why Ning drooped his eyes and looked at the dim screen of the mobile phone. He didn''t know how to answer Jin shaosi. With a slight sigh, Jin shaosi slowly leaned over and looked at the depressed vineyard, gradually deepened his eyes and said, "every time I see you so hesitant in the face of Li Yunze, I want to empty your memory." He Yining raised his eyes to see shaosi Jin and understood what he thought. "Yining, can''t you really let yourself go?" Mr. Jin twisted his eyebrows to see why he Yining. He Yining shook his head, "I can''t let go of loving him, because I can''t let go of brother Yunhao." His outspoken words made Jin shaosi nervous. He knew the answer clearly. Why did he ask? Take back your sight. While taking over the mobile phone, Mr. Jin walked forward slowly "The winery has officially entered the track. If the estimate is correct, it can start to make profits in the next quarter." Jin shaosi looked at the place in the shed area. "Ruomin flew to France and introduced some new seedlings, but it''s not certain whether she can survive due to soil and climate problems." Why would you rather follow quietly and listen. "But if the cultivation is successful, before I leave, the fermentation varieties studied with Arang will come out, and it is estimated that the winery will be completely stable." Jin shaosi looked at he Yining and said with a smile, "I know you''re not interested in these." Why Ning zhe said, "I''m not interested, but this is home and childhood memory." Jin shaosi lowered his eyes and smiled again, mocking himself, "you don''t have to remind me again and again, I''m just family." He Yining sighed and said nothing more. In this way, they shuttle through the vineyard in winter. The sun is bright and there is no wind, so people can''t feel the cold. Jin shaosi took he Yining to the winery again. On the bus, he thought for a while and said, "sister-in-law Feng is coming up." "Sister Feng?!" He Yining''s eyes lit up. Although Qu Weiwei''s affairs are in the middle, she has no silk gap with sister-in-law Feng. Sister-in-law Feng is kind to her, just like her daughter. She feels it. "Have you seen Qu Weiwei?" He Yining asked. "Well, I went there yesterday." He Yining was silent and said, "I want to see sister-in-law Feng. Anyway, she took good care of me before." "I''ll arrange it, but you have to promise me..." Jin shaosi looked at he Yining. "You can''t be soft hearted." Why rather astringently pulled the corners of his mouth, "No." She looked out of the window. "Qu Weiwei should be punished. She can''t get sympathy because of sister-in-law Feng''s kindness." "If only you understood." He Yining looked at the passing street view and sighed, "I hope she can understand that some things will not belong to her no matter how persistent they are." Shaosi Jin looked at he Yining with a touch of sadness across his eyes. Yining, you mean yourself? Li Yunze''s persistence, but ultimately because of all kinds, does not belong to you You know, but you can''t let it go. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze came back from La prison, looked at the time and went to Ho''s winery. When he arrived, Jin shaosi and he Yining had just arrived. The three got off one after another, looked at each other and walked towards each other Major Jin and Li Yunze exchanged eyes. No one said anything more?! "I asked the kitchen to make a meal and try the new batch of wine from the winery?" Jin shaosi was the first to speak. "OK." Li Yunze didn''t refuse, but his eyes looked at he Yining. Why did Ning lie in the corner of his mouth and didn''t say anything. The three entered the winery together. The winery is for sale. There is a wine tasting area and a dining area. It is full of wine from Ho''s winery. Jin shaosi personally served meals and wine. Even Li Yunze, who was a naughty man from a young age, couldn''t find anything wrong. "If the Jin family goes bankrupt one day, you still have a skill." Li Yunze said faintly, "it''s good to make wine and serve wine." Jin shaosi smiled, "well, Huakang has closed down, and there are many hospitals competing for you!" He Yining looked at the two people. She could feel the confrontation and treacherous breath between them. "You''re wrong." Li Yunze smiled, a little evil, "if Huakang goes bankrupt, I can start from a small clinic and start all over again." He looked at he Yining. "Yining and I have a combination of double swords. In terms of medical treatment, there is nothing we can''t handle." "..." why did Ning twitch at the corners of his mouth. Jin shaosi slightly twisted his eyebrows and said nothing. He just picked up the red wine glass and sipped. It''s too hard for Yunze to get this line. He Jia produces red wine, but he would rather not love it. It''s OK. In the future, I finally went to study medicine and chose a gynecological department to fill Li Yunze''s uncertainty! A meal is fairly harmonious. Although Li Yunze and Jin shaosi dislike each other, no one wants to feel uncomfortable. "Boss," Lu Fan whispered in Jin shaosi''s ear after coming forward and looking at Li Yunze, "Brunei..." Jin shaosi frowned slightly, then looked at he Yining and said, "I''ll have a video meeting and let Li Yunze take you back later!" He Yining nodded. Jin shaosi does what is reasonable and human. He Yining also knows the purpose of Li Yunze''s coming. After Jin shaosi left, he Yining and Li Yunze continued to eat and chat occasionally. Can be more silent, not do not want to say, why rather do not know how to face. "Very good." He Yining said silently, "she has strong adaptability." Li Yunze didn''t think why he would rather take the initiative to talk to him one by one. He was stunned. He asked a little nervously: "one by one she..." he paused. He didn''t ask whether he mentioned him one by one. He Yining seemed to see through Li Yunze''s mind. After being silent, he said, "I don''t know. After seeing her off one by one, I went to the free clinic in the mountain area. I just saw her picture yesterday today. I haven''t contacted yet." "Yes." Li Yunze answered, looked at why Yining''s almost motionless food, and suddenly got up, "let''s go!" "Huh?" He Yining didn''t react and had been pulled up by Li Yunze. "Are you leaving?" Tan Zhonglang asked. Why Ning nodded subconsciously? People have been taken away by Li Yunze. "You drink and drive?" He Yining asked. "Just a few mouthfuls of red wine..." Li Yunze said, took out an unmarked bottle from the toolbox, poured one into his mouth. "This is..." "Sober." Li Yunze indicated why he would rather fasten his seat belt, "just in case of being checked, it''s troublesome." He looked sideways at why Ning smiled and said, "not for sale, otherwise those drunk drivers will be unscrupulous." "..." why did Ning twitch uncontrollably at the corners of his mouth, "what about you?" "If you drink too much, take a taxi or find a substitute driver, you won''t fool around." Li Yunze started the car and looked at he Yining. "Yining, care about me. I suggest staying with me and looking at me nearby is safer. What do you think?" Chapter 1486 "Li Yunze..." why Ning''s heart coagulated. Li Yunze smiled, raised his hand and scraped gently on he Yining''s nose. When she couldn''t respond, she took back her sight and stepped on the accelerator. At the same time, she slowly opened her mouth: "you don''t have to answer my questions, answer those you want to answer, and think about them in your heart..." After the car pulled into the road, Li Yunze looked at why Yining again. "Yining, we can cheat everyone, but we can''t cheat our own heart." Why should Ning look at Li Yunze with burning eyes? He makes her more fascinated and afraid. "Go and have hot pot?" Li Yunze smiled and said, "a few days ago, I passed by Fengyue road and saw a new Sichuan Chongqing hotpot. You''ll have a good time eating that kind of chain store." He Ning smiled at him with a bottle of coke "Li Yunze, you don''t have to accommodate me like this..." why would you rather look out of the window and dare not look at Li Yunze. "I like it, I''d love to!" Li Yunze raised his eyebrow. "Before, I said you don''t pester me, don''t you pester me, tell me you like it, are you happy?!" "..." he Yining looked at Li Yunze again and suddenly felt a bit gnashing his teeth. Soon arrived at the hot pot shop, and Li Yunze directly reported the box number. "You ordered it before?" He Yining wondered. "Well, I ordered it before I went to pick you up, but I didn''t mention it when Jin shaosi said to eat in the winery." Li Yunze didn''t hide, "you don''t feel comfortable eating. You can''t appreciate the elegant red wine. Don''t waste your reservation. Anyway, hot pot and coke are your standard." "Are you hurting me?" Why would you rather wring your eyebrows. "Tut Tut, did you see it?" Li Yunze suddenly approached, he Yining said. Why did Ning Xin suddenly "click" and then beat wildly, and his heart burst out. Such evil Li Yunze made her have no resistance at all. The hot and spicy hot pot soup bottom stimulates the taste buds. After adding a glass of ice cola, it seems to excite the nerves. Li Yunze looked at why he Ning was happy to eat. He smiled in the corners of his mouth, and his eyes were full of spoil. Yining, let''s put aside our uncle and aunt first and "forget" one by one. It''s just a love story between us I''ll give you a sense of security. Put down your guilt first, okay?! He Yining felt Li Yunze''s eyes burning, stopped his chopsticks, looked at Li Yunze through the heat, and had doubts at the bottom of his eyes. "Take you to a place after dinner." Li Yunze said with deep eyes. "Huh?" Why would you rather wring your eyebrows. Li Yunze just smiled but said nothing, indicating why he would rather continue to eat. ¡­¡­ Qima town. Xiao Yu looked around. There were no pedestrians in the quiet town at night in winter, and the quiet alleys were full of peace. Make sure there is no one nearby. Xiao Yu looks at the position of the second floor, grabs the drain pipe quickly and neatly, and climbs up. He grabbed the drain pipe with one hand and put his foot on the edge of the window. With the other hand, he took out a tool and opened the locked window Hearing the sound of "GADA", Xiao Yu collected his tools and slid open the window. The man dodged in flexibly. He didn''t turn on the light, but through the hazy moonlight, relying on the ability of night vision trained previously, he found a room that was not often occupied at first sight. Pushing the door in, Xiao Yu first stood by the bed and looked around. After looking at the lights of other people''s houses, he didn''t pull the curtains, but adjusted the light of his mobile phone and began to search in the weak light. Soon, Xiao Yu found the place to put the box. Take it out. There are not any design drawings and contract templates, but a few photos. The photos show Li Yunze, he Yining and Qu Weiwei in their youth, either alone or together. Xiao picked up one of the photos of the three and looked at why Ning was in the middle. Qu Weiwei and Li Yunze were left and right respectively. Only why Ning smiled like flowers in front, while Li Yunze looked sideways and slightly twisted her eyebrows, while Qu Weiwei looked sideways at Li Yunze. An interesting picture is not because of the different expressions of the three people, but why Ning was drawn with a thick black pen¡° ¡Á¡±¡£ "Evil in mind." After Xiao Yu said something indifferently, he put the photo back, put the box back in place and took out another one. The things inside are very simple. There is a design drawing of a necklace, a model contract and a contact number on a piece of paper. Xiao Yu photographed the design drawings one by one, put everything back and returned from the original road. Everything is done seamlessly, not professionals, no one will find anything at all? Xiao Yu went back to the small hotel in the town. First, he looked at the contract, then passed everything to Li Yunze''s mailbox, and then passed the contract to Xiao Jing. Xiao Yu called Xiao Jing, "I sent a contract to your mailbox. Show me if there is any problem." Xiao Jing rubbed his eyebrows and said bitterly, "Chen Shao has come back. I''m still tired into a dog. Can''t you brothers handle it by yourself?" "If I can handle that thing, it''s not necessarily you who follow Chen Shao." Xiao Yu said coldly and hung up the phone directly. Xiao Yu''s name sounds very soft, but he is the coldest of the five Xiao. He is named "Yu", but Xiao Changqing picked him up on a rainy day. Xiao Jing rolled over his eyes, put down his mobile phone, opened his email, downloaded the attachment, first went to make himself a cup of coffee, and then came to see it. Since he followed Chen Shao, he couldn''t remember the contract he handled. For Xiao Jing, how to give himself the largest space for word games and trap the other party is easy. After reading a contract, Xiao Jing said "ha ha" and called Xiao Yu back. "The contract itself is not a big problem. The word game is, and it is also within the normal range." Xiao Jing said, "but when do you have a friend who designs jewelry? Why don''t I know?" Xiao Yu didn''t answer Xiao Jing, but asked several more questions about the contract. When he heard that it was a normal contract, he hung up without saying anything more. "Old five won''t fall in love anymore?!" Xiao Jing brightened his eyes and hurriedly sent a text message to Xiao Nan. Soon, Xiao Nan replied: Erjing, when can you be good, I''ll rest assured! "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corners of his mouth. He felt a sense of "the baby''s heart is bitter" about Xiao Nan''s dislike. ¡­¡­ He Yining looked at the building in front as if it were a pill and frowned slightly, "what''s this place?" She glanced at Li Yunze. "Is it Huakang''s new pharmaceutical factory?" "Almost! This is Huakang coming soon..." Li Yunze looked at he Yining and said slowly, "al Research Institute!" Chapter 1487 "Al Institute?" He Yining was surprised, looked at Li Yunze and asked, "will there be too many projects recently opened by Huakang?" "This is what Dad wants." Li Yunze didn''t say much, just took he Yining''s hand and entered the Institute. Why would you rather break free? Sure enough, I couldn''t break free, so I gave up. Although the main body of the appearance is, it is only a preliminary decoration, and the instruments and other facilities are not in place. "The building was originally used as Huakang Pharmaceutical Research Institute." Li Yunze said, "but I changed my mind temporarily and became a special research institute." Why rather listen quietly and look around, I don''t understand why Li Yunze brought her here. "Does al have any special meaning?" He Yining asked, "is it the name of the new drug or what it represents?" Li Yunze stopped and let go of he Yining. He didn''t answer immediately. He just walked to the console, stroked the logo that hadn''t been hung, and looked at her. "What do you think?" Li Yunze asked. Why Ning''s heart has tightened up, and even breathing becomes difficult because of tightening. She wanted to say that she didn''t think of anything, but "Aaron Li," why Ning''s nose has begun to sour. She tried to bear it and said with her teeth, "is this institute in memory of brother Yunhao?" Li Yunze looked at he Yining. He knew how painful her heart was at the moment. He also knew how cruel it was to mention big brother in his face from Yining''s mouth. But he wanted to send a message. He wants to face the mistakes of the previous generation with her and cross this barrier together. He Yining''s eyes were getting redder and redder, and the water mist appeared at the bottom of his eyes in an instant, blurring his sight and looking at Li Yunze. The heartache was unbearable. The corners of her mouth kept moving and trembling. She wanted to tell Li Yunze that it was not what he thought. In fact, everything was her But she dare not! Dare not tell him, afraid he will suffer more pain. Dare not tell him, also because she greedily fell into a strange circle, thinking that she may be buried for a lifetime, and she may also have extravagant hopes The pain of losing again and again, she still can''t learn well, just because she can''t escape the most persistent and deep-rooted love in more than 6000 days and nights! "Li Yunze, what do you mean?" Why would you rather suck your nose? "You brought me here to tell me that you can do it without thinking?" The voice of mockery shows the pain of choking and hurts others and yourself. Li Yunze turned out of the console, stood still in front of he Yining, raised his hand, gently wiped the tears on her cheeks with his fingers, and said softly in his voice: "Yining, I told you not to think, it doesn''t matter... Lying to you is also lying to myself." He Yining''s heart ached, closed his eyes, and tears rolled down. Li Yunze sighed softly, "but I want to work hard. The result is good or bad. At least I give each other a chance." "But what if it''s not what you think?!" He Yining stepped back and looked at Li Yunze with hazy tears. Li Yunze frowned slightly, stepped forward, didn''t give why Ning the chance to retreat again, directly took her into his arms, and slowly said, "since I want to be with you, I will try to break through the obstacles... Yining, you''re not a person who retreats and is not strong. Let''s take a step forward together, OK?" Gentle words are soothing. Why would you rather close your eyes and tremble. Can she? She can expect that since Li Yunze can take a step forward, perhaps, after accepting the "facts" he thinks, he may not be so difficult to accept when he tells her that everything is her? This is a double-edged sword! In case of stabbing, she deserved the pain, but how could she be willing to let Li Yunze hurt together? "You don''t have to answer me now," Li Yunze''s voice was always calm. "You can think about it, but during this period, you can''t avoid me or put pressure on yourself because of what I did to you." He Yining cried silently without answering. "Yining, I need you to answer me!" Li Yunze said, "don''t give each other pressure, get along normally... Is it OK?" Why rather bite her lips? She told herself to be rational, but her behavior has already answered Li Yunze. Li Yunze raised his mouth and felt the hand around his waist. Such a smile instantly reached the bottom of his eyes. "Yining, join the Al plan!" Li Yunze said, "to break through psychological barriers, the first step we have to do... Is to face it!" ¡­¡­ Li Jinxi nestled in the sofa, covered with a thin blanket, talking on the phone with Su Junli. "After this tour, you can have a good rest." Su Jun replied, "Jin Xi, are you okay?" "What''s wrong with me? That''s it!" Li Jinxi said with drooping eyes. "Jin Xi, can''t let go, why don''t you learn Mo Mo?" Su Junli sat on the piano stool, his slender white fingers gently pressed a key and made a clear sound. "Although there is a misunderstanding between Gu Beichen and Mo Mo, which is different from that of you and Chen Yu, you also know that it has nothing to do with Chen Yu." Li Jinxi hasn''t fully recovered from her miscarriage. Now she hears Su Junli say that her face is slightly pale because of sadness. "Jinxi, how rare it is for people in love to be together?" Su Jun got up, walked slowly to the window, and said in a secluded voice, "there are too many marriages and love that seem to be divorced or only pay feelings unilaterally... There are too many people who love each other and can''t be together. How rare and happy it is to love but be together. Why should we live up to the gift of God?" He loves Mo Mo and has been with her for four and a half years, but he can''t squeeze Gu Beichen out of her heart. Don''t you complain? How could But like is one person''s business, and love is two people''s business! Many people understand this truth, but few can come together in the end. Li Jinxi''s eyes were a little red. She took a deep breath and pulled a bitter smile from the corners of her mouth, "so I said divorce, but I always consumed it..." Pain, but she didn''t want to end it. Even if seeing Chen Yu every day is to add a wound to herself, she can at least feel pain. She was afraid that when Chen Yu left, she was really completely numb "Bless you!" Su Junli spoke slowly. Li Jinxi took a deep breath and heard the sound of the door opening in time, "I''ll hang up first." "Yes." Su Jun answered. The moonlight fell on Su Junli through the window, and the light pulled his figure out of the ground. "Momo, you have something to give and gain in life. You will eventually get God''s compensation for losing Xiaoyan..." Su Junli whispered, "I will always look at you like this until you are unbridled happiness!" Chapter 1488 "I thought the research was ruined." Li Yunze took he Yining to visit the interior of the Institute. "Isn''t it?" He Yining has a hoarse voice because he cried. Li Yunze shook his head. "Maybe not. I''m not completely sure. I don''t know whether dad has complete information or only the part he knows. Then I want to take it out and continue my research." Why Ning drooped his eyes, "I remember that the research will make a great contribution to the medical community, but also to..." Li Yunze looked at he Yining. Because of the burden in her heart, she was full of sensitivity to this topic. But he must let two people face this problem before he can find a way to cross it and tell her that he wants to give her a sense of security from this matter. "Yes, it is also a great profit for thoughtful criminal groups." Li Yunze said, "because we can extract the fundamental properties of traditional Chinese medicine, naturally, the extraction of opium poppy is the same, which will be the extraction of the highest purity." He Yining seems to have pressed a big stone in his heart and can''t move it, so he has some weakness under repression. "It''s late. Go home!" Li Yunze didn''t continue this topic. People can''t eat a fat man in one bite, and this problem can''t be relieved at once. Too radical will only backfire. Lock the door, Li Yunze and he Yining return to the car. After waiting for the car to leave, a figure who had been hiding in a nearby corner came out. Meng Yi first looked at Li Yunze''s tail light and disappeared after it crossed the corner. Then he looked at the Research Institute. According to previous reports, the Institute will be officially put into operation before the spring after the lunar new year. As for whether it will be the original research, we will soon... Know. Meng Yi takes back his sight, presses the brim of his baseball cap and turns away. ¡­¡­ "When will you return to the hospital?" Li Yunze asked in his car. "I have to write a medical report these days. I''ll have a meeting on Monday." He Yining looked at Li Yunze, "if there''s no accident, I''ll go back to Shuya after the meeting." "Yes." Li Yunze replied, "the early start-up plan has begun. I will say hello to Ma Guangming in these two days." Why should I rather hang my eyes and gently answer the voice, "HMM." "Yining..." Li Yunze shouted. He Yining looked at Li Yunze again. Li Yunze took a look at why Ning, his vision fell in front of him and drove, "remember, don''t put too much pressure on yourself, huh?" He Yining was silent and nodded gently. He remembered that Li Yunze was driving and replied, "HMM." Li Yunze and he Yining returned to the family home. I don''t know if it''s because the two people''s feelings here have improved by leaps and bounds. Li Yunze also has a sense of belonging here. In the days when he Yining went to the mountains, Li Yunze had bought this small two bedroom house with the landlord. The names of him and he Yining were written on the real estate certificate. Not married, but in his heart, the two have been "married", so they must be common property! Of course, his private heart has nothing to do with common property. He just wants to tie the two people together "Go to bed early today and write the medical report tomorrow?" Li Yunze asked. He Yining was a little nervous, but he saw Li Yunze smile and said, "I have to deal with something. You go to bed first." He Yining blushed, bit his lower lip, turned around and hurried to wash. Looking at such he Yining, Li Yunze lowered his eyes and shook his head with a smile. When he Yining went back to the bedroom after washing, Li Yunze went to get his notebook out. At that time, he received Xiao Yu''s message that things had been sent to his mailbox. After opening and looking at the design drawing and contract, Li Yunze didn''t find anything wrong. He may be worried about Qu Weiwei. Even if there was nothing wrong, he was still cautious. "Li Shao..." Xiao Qiang was sleepy. "Did Xiao Yu send you a phone number to check?" Li Yunze asked. "Yes." Xiao Qiang got up and went to the computer. His mobile phone was clamped at his neck. His fingers flipped out the information "The other party is a supplier of finished jewelry products in the United States, and the scale is not small. Because of its unique vision, it can often get some design drafts loved by celebrities..." Xiao Qiang looked at the data and said, "it is very famous among jewelry designers and collectors." "That''s all?" Li Yunze frowned. "Xiao Yu asked me to tell you that Erjing saw the contract and there was no problem." Xiao Qiang drank saliva and moistened his throat. "This man inquired and was a jewelry supplier." "Yes." Li Yunze answered and hung up. He looked at Qu Weiwei''s design drawing. Although there was no problem with the contract and people, he just felt uneasy. Li Yunze wondered whether he would think more because he had always been deceived by her before? Turn off the computer and Li Yunze goes back to the bedroom after washing. Seeing that he Yining''s body was inside and there was room for him outside, the corners of his mouth couldn''t help smiling, went to bed gently and took her into his arms Night moves slowly in the unique silence of winter. But it is precisely because of such a night, it seems to be shrouded in fog, so that people can''t see the light, resulting in the shock of hesitation. "Er... Er..." "Ah --" The low roar mixed with the cry of tearing came from the misty distance, with suppressed despair. Li Yunze twisted his eyebrows and approached the voice step by step. As they approached, the voice became more and more sharp, piercing people''s hearts and filled with grief. Suddenly Li Yunze suddenly stopped and looked at the scene in front of him with a frightened face The young Li Yunhao was bound by a thick chain. He kept yelling and struggling. His body was full of blood. His eyes were scarlet and like the devil, as if he was going to eat people at any time. "Big brother..." Li Yunze wanted to come forward. But when he went further, Li Yunhao''s shadow stepped back, and the strange voice of tearing was a little louder, enveloping Li Yunze in all directions. "Don''t, don''t... er... Don''t..." Li Yunhao shouted, looking very painful. "Li Yunze, you can''t, can''t... Er... Do you hear... Er..." The voice of grief and anger was full of anger. Li Yunhao looked at Li Yunze''s line of sight, better like an enemy. Li Yunze was afraid of such Li Yunhao. After he shouted "big brother", he wanted to come forward again, but suddenly, Li Yunhao disappeared in front of him like a phantom. "Big brother..." Li Yunze screamed and suddenly sat up. At the right time, he Yining pushed open the bedroom door from the outside, looked at Li Yunze, who was surprised to sit up, bit his lip and crossed his eyes with sadness. Li Yunze was a little empty in his mind. When he thought about what he had just done in his dream, his face suddenly turned sideways and saw why he would rather stand at the door of the bedroom, shaking uncontrollably. "Yining..." Chapter 1489 He Yining''s eyes were filled with fear under sadness. She looked at Li Yunze, gradually bit her lips, and held the door handle tight and tight. Just now, did he dream? Did you dream about brother Yunhao? So he was awakened by shouting "big brother", so... In fact, he can''t let go as he thought. Subconsciously, he is also putting pressure on himself. He just doesn''t know, does he? Why Ning''s mind is in a mess. Looking at Li Yunze''s line of sight, he is full of fear, fear, sadness... And unclear tangles. Li Yunze got out of bed, hurried to he Yining, and wanted to hold her. But her finger just touched he Yining. She was surprised, turned around and hurried to the bathroom. "I''ll wash..." he Yining threw down three words and heard the sound of the bathroom door closing. Li Yunze closed his eyes and grinned secretly. His dream and waking up were not the right time! Last night, it was not easy for Yining to remove the defense line slightly. All previous efforts were wasted, even worse. Li Yunze took a deep breath, looked at the defense line in the bathroom, went to get his mobile phone and dialed Li Jiyuan, "Dad, I have something to talk about. Are you going to school or at home today?" "I have to go to school in the morning. I should be fine in the afternoon." "See you at home!" The voice of Li yunning said. "Yes." Li Jiyuan answered. Li Yunze hung up the phone and looked at the direction of the bathroom. He saw that there was no movement inside. He knew why he Yining was doing self-construction inside. He is not an evasive person. What does the dream suggest? Li Yunze hasn''t arrived yet. He can''t tell why. Big brother likes Yining. He used to support Yining to chase him, so there can be no so-called "dream" to prevent him from being with Yining. Moreover, he is not a person who will whitewash peace and turn everything into potential pressure. Well, what he always thought was wrong yesterday may have nothing to do with Qu Weiwei, but al Research Institute. Even Yining can think of Al for the first time. Al is the abbreviation of big brother''s English first name and last name. What if those who have a heart have not given up? If so, will history repeat itself if the Li family brazenly starts eldest brother''s research? Li Yunze rubbed his eyebrows, went to the bathroom, knocked on the door and said, "are you going to let me go to the hospital unkempt?" With teasing words, I felt relaxed, as if what had just happened had not happened. In fact, he Yining had finished washing before, and even had breakfast ready, so he came to see if Li Yunze woke up. But who knows that as soon as he got to the door, he heard the sound of being awakened by a dream Looking at his pale face due to heart contraction in the mirror, why would he rather close his eyes and bite his teeth to resist the sudden sour and astringent. "Yining..." Li Yunze sighed, "you come out first!" With a tone of command and a trace of overbearing. He Yining kept breathing deeply. After going back and forth several times, he suppressed the surging emotion in his heart, turned around and opened the door "You wash quickly. My breakfast is ready." He Yining''s eyes fluttered and wanted to cross Li Yunze. Li Yunze grabbed her and felt why Ning''s subconscious resistance and avoidance. He secretly scolded himself, grabbed her shoulder blade with both hands, looked at her seriously and said, "Yining, I just dreamed of big brother..." Why Ning''s face was suddenly bad, and the eyelashes of drooping eyes kept trembling. Li Yunze grinned secretly and said seriously, "Yining, I dreamed that brother was not because I was under great pressure, but because I suddenly thought of al Research Institute." He Yining raised his eyes, looked at Li Yunze, bit his lips, but didn''t speak. "I always felt something wrong after you went to bed last night," Li Yunze explained. "But I can''t think of anything." He Yining didn''t speak, but looked at Li Yunze. The position of his heart was always tight and couldn''t be relieved. "This dream wakes me up. What I was worried about last night." Li Yunze breathed a sigh of relief. "If, I mean, if those people didn''t give up their covet at all, would the emergence of the research institute make them hold any thoughts?" He Yining''s eyes twinkled, obviously filled with fear under resistance. "So, I''m worried about this!" Li Yunze said solemnly. Why Ning Zhe''s lower lip, to Li Yunze''s eyes, told himself to believe him, but it was uncontrollable fear. "You wash first..." he Yining raised his hand and put it off. Li Yunze held his hand. "I, I''ll cool the porridge." Li Yunze sighed secretly. Knowing that a mistake needed to be made up was not in a few words, he nodded, looked at why he Ning went outside and entered the bathroom with a sigh. Breakfast was a little silent. If Li Yunze didn''t need to go back to the hospital for a meeting, he didn''t want to go today. "You go and get busy," he Yining knew he was worried about her. "I''m going to write a medical report at home today and don''t go out." "Wait for me to come back for dinner in the evening, huh?" Li Yunze asked with certainty. He Yining looked at Li Yunze, paused for a few seconds and nodded, "OK." Li Yunze hugged he Yining and let her go. ¡­¡­ "Boss, I''m afraid you have to go back and preside over the overall situation." Su ruomin looked dignified, "although this time has not caused a great impact, but if they do not suppress directly, they will have a second and third time!" Those unwilling Jin family members, now taking advantage of the fact that Jin shaosi spent most of his time in Los Angeles, began to feel uneasy about doing things. If they were not afraid of beating them all at once, who knows what would happen later? Jin shaosi didn''t speak, but his eyes fell on the rising sun from behind the rows of tall buildings in Los Angeles and gradually deepened his eyes. ¡°Boss£¡¡± Su min is a little dignified. "Ruomin, I got the Jin family to have more freedom, and this freedom is for a girl named he Yining." Jin shaosi said slowly, "when Yining''s first life was difficult, I wasn''t with her. Now, it''s another difficult life for her. I don''t want to leave her alone, do you understand?" Su ruomin''s capable face was full of melancholy, "but..." "They can''t turn out any big waves. In my eyes, they are just clowns." Jin shaosi turned slowly. The morning light shrouded his figure and made a vain light and shadow, which made people unable to see his expression at the moment. Su ruomin only felt the pressure coming for a while. As Jin shaosi''s secretary, she knew what she needed to do most at the moment, but unfortunately, her words stuck in her throat and couldn''t say it. Jin shaosi raised his eyes and said slowly, "I don''t want to put the cart before the horse!" Chapter 1490 Su ruomin looked at Jin shaosi quietly. After a while, she sighed and said, "I see." "You go back and deal with it. I said hello to the government last night." Jin shaosi came forward and put coffee powder into the coffee machine. "I''ve used the way of cultivation and arrangement for so many years, and I always need to use it." "Yes." Su ruomin answered. When the coffee was ready, Jin shaosi handed Su ruomin a cup and explained the affairs in Brunei. Jin''s group is the largest group in Brunei and controls the reserve and development of a lot of oil, which is black gold. How many people does the government have to support by relying on the tax revenue of Jin''s group? Over the years, Jin shaosi has trained so many people in Brunei. They always need to use it occasionally. Only then can they know who is their real "master". ¡­¡­ He Yining has been on the computer for more than two hours. There is only a title and no word on the page document. My mind is a little empty, but it seems to be stuffed with a lot of things. The mobile phone ring suddenly came. Why Ning was suddenly surprised. He was stunned for a few seconds before he picked it up. "Yining, come out for dinner." Yan Miao hung his white coat on the hanger and took his down jacket. "Go to the stewing pot next to your community." He Yining looked at the time. It was already eleven o''clock. "Did you just get up next night?" "Next big night, another meeting was held. That''s it." Yan Miao said and walked out. "I''ll take the subway and get to you in about half an hour." "I''ll see you later." "Good!" He Yining hung up the phone, looked at the medical report with only one title, sighed and got up to change his clothes. The sun is still very good in the morning. Towards noon, however, because there are more clouds, the sun has no strength, and the air is a little cold. Why did Ning ha take a breath, take a deep breath and walk outside the community When the talent arrived at the stew pot shop, Jin shaosi called. "Have you eaten yet?" "I made an appointment with Yan Yan to eat at the door of the community." He Yining, led by the waiter, went down to a position by the window. "Have you made an appointment with sister-in-law Feng?" "Well," said Jin shaosi, "I have an appointment for tomorrow noon. I''ll book a place for you and sister-in-law Feng to eat quietly?" "OK." Why should I answer. "Then you and yanmiao have dinner first. What''s the matter? Call me, you know?" Jin shaosi said softly. Why should I rather say thank you, but in the end, I didn''t speak. Yan Miao arrived soon. He was tired of staying up all night, but he couldn''t see it in spirit. "Li Yunze, that pervert," said yanmiao discontentedly as soon as he sat down, "has called back my secondary vocational application again." He Yining frowned, "why?" "I suspect he is using public affairs for personal gain." Yan Miao said angrily and called the waiter. After ordering something, he continued, "I want you to open your mouth to find him." Yanmiao''s secondary vocational application was applied by he Yining when she just went to the free clinic in the mountain area. After the examination and approval, the director of Shenwai told her this morning. She really has reason to suspect that Li Yunze is selfish. Indeed, Li Yunze was selfish and stuck yanmiao, hoping that he Yining would take the initiative to find him. But he Yining had no way to escape Li Yunze because of the mountain patients, and he forgot it. "Are you sure it''s because of me?" Why should Ning twist her eyebrows slightly? After all, she can''t avoid Li Yunze now. "It must be you, or with what card?" Yanmiao raised her eyebrows, with a flattering attachment in her eyes, and grabbed he Yining''s hand. "Yining, look, I can''t bear the consequences of your two things, can I? Otherwise, go to him and talk..." He Yining looked at yanmiao''s expression, astringently and calmly said: "Yanyan, I came back the evening before yesterday and was blocked at home by him. It was the same last night. It is estimated that tonight is also..." As soon as yanmiao heard this, he immediately came to the spirit, "you mean, you two..." "I didn''t hide from him, so you don''t have to let me find him." Yan Miao rolled over his eyes. "Seriously, I really want you to find him, but he stuck me, too." After a pause, "I''ll go. It''s not Li yunzeguang who remembers to card me. He met you, but forgot about me?" He Yining frowned, "I''ll ask later!" "Yes." Yan Miao answered and continued to say, "Yining, what are you going to do? You and Li Yunze went around until you will send them away one by one. I don''t understand why?" Why is Ning Chui''s eyes silent, listening to the stew sound of "Dudu" in the stew pot? After a while, he slowly opened his mouth: "Yan Yan, Li Yunze and I are looking for a solution. I don''t know if we can succeed..." She raised her eyes. "If we succeed, maybe we can really be together. If we can''t..." she thought of what happened in the morning and pulled the corners of her mouth astringently, "I feel like I''ll die." "What are you talking about?" Yan Miao glared discontentedly, "tell me about you. You live and die for love. You think you are an invincible young girl? You are a mother." "Yes, I''m a mother, so no matter how hard it is, I''ll stick to it." Why Ning sighed, "love, you know, I always feel better with your company and support." "Must!" Yan Miao lifted the lid, "turn sadness into appetite and eat!" She sandwiched her favorite food for he Yining, "I''m relieved if you can think of solving it with him." He Yining smiled and nodded. If ace hadn''t seen about brother Yunhao that day, she wouldn''t tell anyone about it. If you can''t solve it, why let the people around you accompany you with your pain? ¡­¡­ After the meeting, Li Yunze went to the pharmaceutical factory again. By the time I''m finished, it''s almost noon. Sitting on the bus, Li Yunze sent a message to he Yining: have you eaten? He Yining replied: eat with Yan Yan. Li Yunze frowned slightly, suddenly remembered something and replied: tell yanmiao to hand over her application tomorrow. "Li Yunze asked you to submit your application again tomorrow." He Yining said to yanmiao. "Look, I knew he was using public affairs for personal gain!" Yan Miao dissatisfied with the sentence after the sentence said, "forget it, look at your face, I will not make complaints about it." "You can worry about it. It won''t be delivered tomorrow..." he Yining said with a smile, "well, it will be delivered the day after tomorrow." Yan Miao looked at he Yining and leaned back slowly on the chair. Why is Ning stunned, "what''s the matter?" "Yining," yanmiao said quietly, "no matter how many problems exist, you can''t deny that only he can give you happiness..." Chapter 1491 He Yining was stunned, and the joking smile at the corners of his mouth also froze there, and then slowly put it away. "Although you haven''t been so painful, you inadvertently lost your mind several times during our meal. Even your smile is reluctant to let me worry." Yan Miao said directly without any modification, "but because of Li Yunze''s short message and because you mentioned eating with me, he thought of me. You are very happy." He Yining was silent because she couldn''t refute. "Because you think Li Yunze cares about you and the people around you..." yanmiao''s voice is still calm. "Therefore, you are unconsciously and subconsciously happy." Yan Miao sighed, "Yining, you love him so much." Why do you feel a little tight? There is a touch of astringency in the fundus of your eyes. Yes, she loves Li Yunze, and only when she is with him can she be happy. But love is like this, sweet and hurtful. When she thought everything was beautiful as if she were in heaven, a thunderbolt caught her by surprise. When she often hopes, she brings back the reality. For example, in the morning Although Li Yunze said it was about al Research Institute, there was really nothing about brother Yunhao. Was it related to "she"?! ¡­¡­ Li Yunze went home and asked aunt Qiao to make him something to eat while waiting for Li Jiyuan. Before taking two bites, Li Jiyuan came back. "Dad, have you had dinner?" Li Yunze asked. "I have." Li Jiyuan changed his shoes and handed the bag to Aunt Qiao. "I''ll go to the study to deal with the medicine and put it in the warehouse. You''ll come up to me later." "OK." Li Yunze answered and continued to eat. After eating, he took the tea just made by Aunt Qiao and went to the study. "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." Li Yunze pushed the door in, sat down opposite Li Jiyuan and handed him the tea cup. "What happened, suddenly so formal?" Li Jiyuan put down his reading glasses and asked. "The study about big brother." Li Yunze''s words fell, and he saw Li Jiyuan''s look frozen. "Dad, although it has been many years, I suddenly thought again, will those people never give up from beginning to end?" "You mean..." "Although it seems that things have come to an end with the departure of big brother, who knows if those people will associate with what because of the official launch of al Research Institute?" Li Jiyuan pondered and nodded. "I''ve also considered this matter. I didn''t think about using this name in the press conference... I just want to commemorate your big brother." Li Yunze naturally understood Li Jiyuan''s mind. "Now it can''t be sent out. If you change it again, it will attract the attention of those who want to." Li Yunze said, "the Institute is as usual. Several drug schemes I ran aground before can be taken out and carried out first. After all, it is also a general direction and a normal drug related to people''s livelihood." Li Jiyuan knows that Li Yunze is talking about several conventional drugs that have not been broken through before, as well as one about curbing the spread of cancer cells. "Then..." "As for big brother''s research, I plan to turn light into dark." Li Yunze said, "if we can, Yining and I will buy a house and build a sterile laboratory underground on the premise of marriage." Li Jiyuan looked at Li Yunze. After a while, he frowned and asked, "if so, there are two problems." "Yes, two!" Li Jiyuan tightened his eyebrows and listened to Li Yunze say: "first of all, my relationship with Yining, and secondly... This research is only carried out by me!" "It seems that you have considered it well..." Li Jiyuan said after turning his head and being silent, "Yunze, what''s the matter between you and Yining? Didn''t you have to get the certificate before? Why..." Li Yunze didn''t tell Li Jiyuan why to settle the entanglement between his parents and Li Yunhao. Now Li Jinxi''s affairs are enough for his father to worry about. He can worry about his own affairs. "It should be mine, and it''s not what others can do." Li Yunze was quite calm. "Moreover, I''m afraid it''s better to say that the eldest brother''s research is the most reassuring in the world and can help me." Li Jiyuan does not deny this. He Yining grew up after watching them, and now he is also a doctor. Although he has not developed in medicine, he has no problem helping Yunze deal with some small things. What''s more, I''m afraid Yining is more important than his life about Yunze. "Now that you''ve decided, let''s get started." Li Jiyuan said. Li Yunze breathed a sigh of support. In fact, although this approach is preventive on the one hand, on the other hand, he is selfish. Only by getting rid of the eldest brother''s research, Yining may feel less guilty. On the one hand, on the other hand... He tied Yining around with such "means". He is not a generous person. He knows that Yining will be happy only when he is around Yining. Anyway, he has to work hard for each other''s future. ¡­¡­ After breaking up with yanmiao, he Yining went home and fell jet lag with them one by one. They chatted with each other through video connection for a while. "Mom, when will you come to see me?" Lying on the table one by one, his big eyes fanned, "did you tell that uncle?" He Yining felt guilty and said, "one by one, I''m sorry..." "Mom, it doesn''t matter!" One by one said with a smile, "it''s also very good here. The children are very beautiful. Many of them are like dolls... You know, I like beautiful ones best." Why do you rather want to touch one by one? Your fingers are about to touch the iPad, and finally curled up. She would like to tell one by one that she and her uncle went to see her when she had a chance But in this case, she was afraid to say for the time being, afraid to disappoint her daughter again and again. Listening and talking about the interesting things in the new environment one by one, the time passed slowly, and almost an hour passed in the twinkling of an eye. "Mom, I''m going to bed." One by one, he made a gesture with the teacher, "remember to tell me to that uncle." "Yes." He Yining nodded, "take good care of yourself." "Mom, too!" One by one grinned and waved, "bye, mom." "Goodbye..." The video was cut off and looked at the static page. Why would rather stay in a daze for a long time before he took back his sight and got up to continue writing the motionless medical report. evening. When Li Yunze opened the door, he heard something coming from the kitchen. With a smile in his mouth, he put the things in his hand aside and went to the kitchen. He Yining, who was washing vegetables, didn''t find Li Yunze coming in. He suddenly hugged him from behind. She was shocked reflexively, and a charming voice came from her ear: "Yining, although it''s only a day, I''ve missed you..." Chapter 1492 With a bang, why did Ning''s food slip from his hand and fall into the pool. Li Yunze felt why Ning''s heart was beating madly. He smiled with some evil spirit in the corners of his mouth. The bottom of his eyes was filled with pride and said, "in fact, I can still talk about love!" Why did Ning lightly frown and look slightly at Li Yunze Seeing the opportunity, Li Yunze came forward directly and kissed him on why he Ning''s mouth. He Yining was completely frozen in the original place. For Li Yunze, if she was in love with the two people before, she would "turn away from the guest" and go back directly. But at this moment, she was at a loss. Li Yunze didn''t ignore why Yining''s hesitation, but when he didn''t see it, he directly faced himself with why Yining. "Do you want to kiss me?" Li Yunze asked with a smile, looking at he Yining''s hot line of sight. Why did Ning Xin suddenly "click" and move away quickly after some flustered Li Yunze''s line of sight. "I want you to kiss me!" Li Yunze''s smile deepened and his voice was seduced by charm. Why Ning''s face began to turn red. Subconsciously, he wanted to escape. Unfortunately, Li Yunze will not give her this opportunity. "Li Yunze..." "Don''t you want to kiss me?" Li Yunze grabbed he Yining''s shoulder blade and said with more and more deep eyes, "but I really want to kiss you..." Why Ning subconsciously raised his eyes and looked at Li Yunze. When he held the back of her head in one hand and pressed himself, Jun''s face pressed down at the same time, and his lips... Fell on her lips! The shallow caress did not go deep, and the hot tip of the tongue, like a brush, outlined the lips of he Yining and rippled the ripples in her heart. He Yining''s breathing has begun to be rapid. Such sensory stimulation makes her head empty at once. She can only respond to Li Yunze''s instinctive reflection while allowing Li Yunze''s behavior Li Yunze could no longer suppress her missing after he Yining''s reaction. His tongue suddenly pried open her shell teeth and drove straight into The two people who repressed their thoughts were hot at the touch of fire. A deep and dripping kiss makes each other eager, but also makes each other suppress greater impulses. When he Yining was about to be unable to breathe, Li Yunze reluctantly let go of her sweet lips, put his forehead against her, closed his eyes and felt each other''s temperature. Why did you calm down the corners of your mouth? Because of the lack of oxygen before, your chest is rising and falling at the moment. They were too close to each other. He Yining rubbed Li Yunze with his big breath, which was a kind of torture that made him crazy. Li Yunze said in his voice with a thick GA under the heat of forbearance: "he Yining, you said I was the robbery of your life. I feel that in fact, you are the ''nightmare'' of my life!" He Yining didn''t speak and didn''t realize what had happened. "When I was a child, I could only run after you, but now I can only run after you..." Li Yunze gnashed his teeth, and his voice was obviously trembling with forbearance. I really want to... Ask her directly here! He Yining is not a child. First, she has been with Li Yunze many times. Second, she is a doctor. She felt that Li Yunze was forbearing. She wanted to help him, but she couldn''t cross the barrier in her heart The joy of the body will sink the soul. She is afraid, she is really afraid! Li Yunze took he Yining into his arms and said slowly when she was about to break free: "let me rub it. You can''t help me directly. You always have to compromise, don''t you?" Why Ning''s face is burning, because Li Yunze''s action is as hot as fire. Sometimes men are really shameless in that respect. Many actions will make you... Can''t imagine! He Yining continued to cook, and Li Yunze certainly went to take a bath At the thought that Li Yunze had just released himself, why Ning''s face was uncontrollably red and hot to fever. He Yining is shy here. Li Yunze, as a man, doesn''t care about it at all. He also appreciates why Ning blushes "Men''s structure is like this. You can''t hold it. If you think about it later, what if it breaks down when you want to use it?" Li Yunze was eating what he would rather cook, and his mouth couldn''t stop flirting with her. Why Ning Zhe''s lips stared and decided to eat silently. According to her incomplete statistical research, when a man plays such a joke with you, the more reasonable you are, the more energetic he is. ¡­¡­ The next morning, he Yining sorted out the medical report of the free clinic in the mountain area, and went to the restaurant agreed by Jin shaosi to her and sister-in-law Feng. I haven''t seen you for many years. Although I don''t feel strange, time is estranged. "The young lady has grown up..." sister-in-law Feng said with emotion. He Yining smiled. "After so many things, you can''t grow up without growing up." When sister-in-law Feng thought of the accident between he Tianshu and Meng ya, she felt guilty for a while. Looking at he Yining''s line of sight, she felt more pity. They talked about the current situation while eating until sister-in-law Feng finally said her purpose. "Yining," said sister-in-law Feng with red eyes, "I know it''s inappropriate to open this mouth, but Weiwei is my daughter... Can you help her in my face?" Why should Ning sigh, "sister-in-law Feng, I can''t take care of myself now. Do you think I have the ability to help Weiwei?" He paused. "Moreover, it''s the sanction of the law. What ability can I surpass the law?" "Yining, I know ace is very capable now. Even if he can''t come out, can you make Weiwei feel better? Just be sister-in-law Feng, please..." sister-in-law Feng said, with tears streaming down her face. He Yining didn''t know when he began to be soft hearted. If she had been like sister-in-law Feng in the past, she would have agreed to it. But now "Sister Feng, I''m sorry." He Yining said, "I can help Weiwei take care of you, but her mistakes must be borne by herself, otherwise, it will only hurt her." "I know, but I..." "I understand a mother''s love for her children, but I can''t hurt others because of this love, can I?" Sister-in-law Feng was stunned immediately, with a touch of panic in her eyes, looking at he Yining. Does Yining know what happened that year? That''s why He Yining sent sister-in-law Feng back to the hotel and went downstairs. Looking at the bustling crowd and passing vehicles, he sighed gently. Sister-in-law Feng is kind to her, but she can''t erase the things Qu Weiwei did behind her. If you are a person, you have to bear the consequences for what you do, just like her! He Yining turned around to go to the subway station, and then came to the intersection. Suddenly, she looked at the pedestrian in front, the red light was on, and when a figure walked forward, her eyes widened. ''drop - '' The sound of the car horn came. Why did you rather think than think, and rushed forward Chapter 1493 This chapter information is empty Chapter 1494 When Li Yunze opened the door and came in, he Yining just cooked the dishes and brought them out. He stood at the place where the porch came out, leaned against the wall with his arms around his chest, looked at why Ning put down the dishes, turned back and entered the kitchen, and didn''t find him at all. Slightly frowned, and Li Yunze was dissatisfied. Is his sense of existence so low now? So that he Yining can''t feel his breath in the air?! Li Yunze shook his head with a smile. He felt that he was really naive now. No wonder they all said that the IQ of people in love would drop sharply. "Eh?!" He Yining stood at the kitchen door with a bowl of soup in his hand, looked at Li Yunze and asked subconsciously, "did you just come in?" "No, I was here before you last served." Li Yunze''s voice was obviously a little uncomfortable. "Oh..." he Yining tightened his hand to carry the soup. Li Yunze came forward, took the soup in he Yining''s hand and put it on the table, "did you go out today?" "I had dinner with sister-in-law Feng at noon." He Yining didn''t hide it. Li Yunze paused to get up after putting down the soup basin, turned his head to he Yining, twisted his eyebrows and asked, "is it simple to see you or for Qu Weiwei?" "Both." He Yining saw what Li Yunze thought and said directly, "I didn''t promise anything. Some people have to bear what they should bear. I''m the virgin, and it can''t always be the virgin." Li Yunze was very satisfied with he Yining''s attitude and decision. He came forward, holding the chair with one hand, with a lazy casual movement, "it''s all right. You''ve been there, I''ve been missing, and it''s also quite suitable." "..." why did Ning''s mouth twitch? For Li Yunze to say so in order to get closer to himself, some heartache spread in his mood. Li Yunze smiled. When he was stunned, he kissed her on the mouth with lightning speed, turned and walked to the bathroom and said, "go to serve dinner and I''ll wash my hands." He Yining looked at Li Yunze''s back and touched the corners of his mouth. There was still Li Yunze''s breath. If, if All the time, how good?! ¡­¡­ Meng Yi looks at the Los Angeles prison in the distance. He doesn''t drive any further and pulls over. The gray sky was gradually shrouded in darkness. The silence around and the light from the prison in Los Angeles seemed to put the whole world in a kind of treachery. Meng Yi took out a cigarette and held it in his mouth. He lit it immediately. His eyes never left the prison. Slowly took a breath, and the red spark flickered like a ghost fire in the dark silence. With the spitting out of the smoke, the carriage was filled with a strong smell of smoke, which raised the treacherous smell to a peak. The mobile phone vibrated in the silence, and the sound of ''buzzing'' was like a reminder. Meng Yi takes back his sight, looks at the call indifferently, and then answers, "Eric?" "Meng, I heard that the Li family in Los Angeles is going to start a drug research institute?" Asked Eric. Meng Yi sneered, "you''re well informed." "As our middleman, how can we stand if we don''t have a bit of news sensitivity?" Eric said arrogantly, "besides, it''s not luck that I can do what I am today in the intermediary industry." "Has someone taken a fancy to it?" Meng Yi asked. "Yes, the other party offered $100 million." "I want to buy out," Eric said "Buy out, just 100 million?" Meng Yi sniffed coldly, "let''s not say how many years I spent on this line and how much money I invested. I''m afraid the other party knows how much benefit this research will bring in the end." As a middleman, Eric naturally hopes that the two sides can negotiate. In this way, the commission he draws is also considerable. "What''s your intention price?" "Three hundred million dollars, not a Penny Less!" Meng Yi''s words have no room for turning around, "I''m afraid there are many people who want this thing in this world." Eric was silent. "300 million is a little too high. I think I can talk to the other party about 200 million, but I''ll try." Meng Yi said "Hmm" and hung up after a casual chat with Eric. Once again, Meng Yi''s eyes fell on the place of Los Angeles prison, and Meng Yi gradually narrowed his eyes. When I first came into contact with Qu Weiwei, I undoubtedly liked to hear that she mentioned why she would rather take Li Yunhao''s manuscript away, and then a series of things would happen. For so many years, he sometimes talked about it with Qu Weiwei inadvertently, but she just said she saw why she would rather take it, but she didn''t know what was in the paper Do you really don''t know, or do you actually know and don''t want to talk? Meng Yi takes back his sight, opens the window, pops up cigarette butts, starts the car, and drives away with a cold wind ¡­¡­ "He Yining, do you want to marry me?" Li Yunze asked, pulling the rice. "Well... Cough!" He Yining was stunned by Li Yunze''s sudden question. Then, some rice grains choked into her throat. Suddenly, she coughed violently and her face turned red. Li Yunze put down the bowl discontentedly and handed over a glass of water. "How creepy am I?" He Yining coughed and looked at Li Yunze with a red face. He looked strange. He didn''t know whether it was because of his words or because he was choked at the moment. Li Yunze got up and went to give him why Ning. He followed his back and said completely "without compassion": "look at you. If I asked you whether you would marry me or not, you would choke... Hey, I thought you were thrilled. You just stared at me and I understood it at once. You told me that you were too happy and excited." "..." he Yining listened to Li Yunze talking there and wanted to say something, but because his throat had just been choked and was still itching, he was eager to speak, and his cough became worse. "Well, well, don''t get too excited..." Li Yunze said with a grin. "Don''t worry, I won''t go back on my word. I said I''d let you marry me and I''ll let you marry me." He Yining continued to cough. The more she wanted to speak, the more anxious she couldn''t speak. Li Yunze didn''t feel "distressed" at all because of her cough. Instead, he spoke more and more vigorously. "Oh, I knew you would be so happy and excited when I said that. I said it long ago." Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "Well, it''s settled between us. You marry me and I''ll let the media release the news tomorrow." ¡°¡­¡­¡± "After the release, we''ll get the license, and then show the marriage certificate in what microblog, circle of friends..." Li Yunze looked at he Yining with arms and chest, and asked with a smile, "is it great for me to keep pace with the times?" Chapter 1495 "Li Yunze..." He Yining finally slowed down a little and looked at Li Yunze with complex emotions. He wanted to say something, but he didn''t know what to say until he found out. Marrying Li Yunze is the only thing she has to do since childhood. She is willing, but now the situation doesn''t allow it. At least, not until the matter is completely confessed! Li Yunze looked at why he would rather talk and stop, and his heart sank slightly. Although what he just said seemed like a joke, he knew and he Yining understood that he was not kidding. Whether it''s getting a license, getting the permission of the law, or publicly publishing the news that he and why would rather get married, it''s all he has to do. If he had only received the certificate before, he thought it was between them. Now, I don''t think so. Only by telling everyone about their relationship will some coveters of he Yining or people who have any ideas about their relationship understand Why would she rather be his Li Yunze''s woman. "Yining..." "I''m going to the bathroom." He Yining hurriedly got up and ran to the bathroom when Li Yunze was about to speak. The chair almost overturned because of the excessive force. Li Yunze looked at he Yining who ran away and said with a smile on one side of his mouth, "Hey, why Yining, the house is so big. Where can you hide?" "I want you to take care of it!" He Yining put down a sentence angrily, kept walking, pushed open the door of the bathroom, and the figure quickly flashed in and closed the door. Li Yunze laughed, laughing happily. "I said he Yining, you won''t be too happy for fear that I''ll laugh at you, so you hide quickly and steal Le Yibo yourself first?" Why rather blush, "Li Yunze, do you want a face?" "Why should I be ashamed?" Li Yunze answered very smoothly. Why not make a sound? I leaned against the bathroom door and bit my lips. My heart was full of joy, but my nose was sour Li Yunze went to the bathroom to connect the living room, leaned casually on the back of the sofa, his slender legs slightly overlapped, his hands propped on the sofa and waited there. He didn''t rush, so he let him hide. He doesn''t blame Yining for flinching now. After all, he has never given her a sense of security. On the one hand, his plan is to prevent interested people from thinking about his research. On the other hand, he is really selfish. I don''t know how long it took. Li Yunze looked at the time and said with a slight sigh, "Yining, did you fall into the toilet? If so, I have to call Tongtong. It''s estimated that you blocked the toilet for a while, and I can''t figure it out." "..." why did Ning twitch in the corner of her mouth? She also knew that it was inappropriate for her to hide in the bathroom all the time, and came out angrily. "Willing to come out?!" Li Yunze looked at he Yining with a smile. Why rather calm down, "Li Yunze, I won''t marry you." Li Yunze didn''t expect why Ning refused directly as soon as he came out. His face faltered and pretended nothing. He immediately sank his face angrily, "if you have the ability, say it again?" "I..." Why did Ning just spit out a word? Under Li Yunze''s sharp eyes, he was so scared that he swallowed the words behind him. "You won''t marry me. Who else do you want to marry?" Li Yunze snorted, "I''ll tell you why, even if you don''t marry me, you can only stay with me..." Why rather bite your teeth and glare at Li Yunze, "Li Yunze, don''t go too far." "I don''t think you should go too far..." Li Yunze said with a grin and a little rogue. "Tell me about you. You''ve slept with me so many times. Can other men want you? Even if you do, if you compare with me, you''ll still feel better. After all, you can be happy physically and mentally. What if you regret it? I''m thinking of you!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Why Ning really didn''t find it? Li Yunze would talk about it so smoothly. Although she knows that men don''t have a lower limit in that regard, but "Li Yunze, you rascal!" Why rather hold for a long time, just gnash one''s teeth and throw out a few words. "Yes, I''m just a hooligan to you..." Li Yunze said with a look of ''how can you drop me'', "it''s normal for me to flirt with you when I meet you frankly in bed and use so many postures?" "..." he Yining didn''t know whether it was because he was ashamed or angry. The whole person couldn''t speak, so he could only confront Li Yunze with staring eyes. Li Yunze also didn''t give in. He Yining''s eyes slowly opened his mouth: "just say, will you marry me?" He wants to get the relief of he Yining first, and then study turning light into dark. People are a little hypocritical and tangled, and Li Yunze is no exception. Why don''t you speak? The two people just confront each other, and no one will let go Suddenly, the cell phone rang, breaking the deadlock between the two people. Li Yunze took out his mobile phone, lowered his eyes and glanced. Seeing that it was Gu Beichen, he whispered secretly, picked it up and put it in his ear, but his sight fell on why Ning''s face. Listening to what Gu Beichen asked on the phone, Li Yunze, who was completely unable to courtship at the moment, immediately scolded: "labor and capital are not gynecologists!" Then, Li Yunze''s eyes flashed a joking smile, "why Ning, you should know the situation of Jian Mo? Gu Beichen is on the line now and asks if you can... Do it!" "..." he Yining immediately blushed. She knows about Jane mo. a few days ago, when Jane Mo ran the red light, they talked in the cafe... Know some of her recent situation. Li Yunze looked at he Yining with leisure. Seeing that she was angry and ashamed, he asked with evil charm at the corner of her mouth: "hurry up, we won''t hold it for a while. We can see what we can''t eat. It won''t work there..." "Yes." Why is Ning''s face redder, staring and biting his teeth, thinking that Beichen''s phone is still on, Li Yunze asked, "but be moderate..." Li Yunze looked at he Yining all the time, and said to Gu Beichen with some strange emphasis in his voice: "he Yining said, you can do... But be restrained." "Li Yunze, why are you so obscene..." he Yining hid his feet angrily and angrily. Li Yunze looked innocent. "You just said I''m a hooligan. I recognize it! But I don''t recognize it now... I''m just passing on your doctor''s professional advice to each other. What''s obscene?!" "..." he Yining was unable to refute the rhetorical question for a moment. Finally, he turned to the table in anger, picked up his rice bowl and took a bite of rice in anger. Li Yunze walked over and didn''t sit opposite this time. He just took his bowl and sat down next to him, "angry?" Chapter 1496 "No!" Why do you prefer a hard mouth. "Marry me without..." Li Yunze answered very smoothly. "..." why should Ning look at Li Yunze and be speechless again. Li Yunze smiled and said while eating: "Yining, you see, Beichen and Jian Mo are married first and love later. Before that, they had no feelings and didn''t cultivate them very well?" He Yining snorted and continued to eat. "And we have an emotional foundation. We grew up together and know each other." Li Yunze gave him a dish. "Let''s get married first and then deal with those messy things. In this way, it will help each other understand and run in. If we don''t say it, we can compensate each other, right?!" Why would you rather eat? He stopped and looked at Li Yunze. His psychology was depressed to a heavy level. Li Yunze felt a loss in the depths of his eyes, but soon disappeared. When he Yining wanted to refuse the "great truth", he seemed to finally say, "well, let me tell the truth!" "Huh?" Why would you rather wring your eyebrows. "Eat first and then finish." Why did Ning twitch at the corner of his mouth, "Li Yunze, are you kidding me?" "Of course not..." Li Yunze looked at the dishes. "I can''t say a word or two. The dishes are almost cold because you go to the toilet. After eating." Li Yunze deliberately accentuated the word "Shang". Looking at why Ning was embarrassed, the corners of his mouth grinned and picked the tail of his eyebrows. Why should Ning "hum" and continue to eat as if he didn''t see Li Yunze''s ridicule. After eating, Li Yunze washed the dishes and he Yining wiped the dishes. Like the old husband and wife who had lived for many years, they turned ordinary housework into warm love. "What are you going to say?" Why would you rather see that after washing the dishes, Li Yunze didn''t intend to say anything. Some people disliked his suffocation and said, "you won''t tease me again?" "How?" Li Yunze took he Yining''s hand and sat down on the sofa. He bent his leg slightly on the sofa and put his arm on the back of the sofa. His eyes were evil, but he looked at he Yining seriously. Li Yunze didn''t speak, so he Yining looked at him It''s not that he suddenly doesn''t want to say, or waiting for why Yining to ask, but looking at her in the light like this. He despises himself. Why didn''t he find Yining very charming before, even very early Well, at least I''m crazy about him! Being stared at by Li Yunze like this, why should I rather feel uneasy under the unknown. She didn''t know whether Li Yunze really had something to say or whether he was always trying to tease himself, just like in recent days. Since the dream that morning, they were together again, and no one mentioned that dream. Whether deliberately or unintentionally "Yining..." "Yes!" He Yining looked up at Li Yunze. "I said to let you marry me, although it was my selfish expectation, but it was also because of my brother''s research." Li Yunze spoke slowly. Mentioning Li Yunhao, why Ning''s body suddenly froze. Li Yunze sighed quietly, "al Research Institute was originally to study the research left by the eldest brother, but I''m worried that it will still attract some people''s peeping." He Yining began to tighten his heart, thinking of the crime and pain Li Yunhao suffered because of that research, and then thinking that all the causes were her... The heartache was suffocating. "So I''m going to turn that study from light to dark." Li Yunze said slowly, "but now whether the al research plan has been watched or not, I don''t know. The current situation is that I want to carry out this plan on the face of it. At the same time, I will try to convert my brother''s research results into physical objects as soon as possible, apply for international patents of national nature and get protection!" "This..." why rather hang your eyes? There is already uncontrollable pain in your eyes. "What does this have to do with me... What does it have to do with me?" She wanted to ask what it had to do with marrying you, but the word "marry" was so hurtful that she dared not say it. "Yes!" Li Yunze said firmly and leaned forward slightly. With such momentum, he Yining forced him to look at him instinctively. "Because I need a helper, and this helper, when I need it, can appear around me without anyone''s doubt, and won''t betray me!" He Yining''s eyes twinkled and confused. "I have asked Beichen to find me a house. Yining, that house is for marriage!" Li Yunze looked at he Yining and his eyes became deep. "Do you understand what I said?" Understand? Why doesn''t he Yining understand? When she marries Li Yunze, she can move in good faith. She can also help him deal with some trivial things when he studies Not only the right identity, but also her job! But "I know you understand," Li Yunze continued without waiting for he Yining''s answer. "Yining, when I knew you were going to medical school, my first reaction was, when can you stop fooling around for me..." Why Ning Zhe''s lips, she wanted to say that she didn''t apply for medical school for him. "I know, you''re not because of me... But I''ve never been so lucky as this moment. You study medicine." Li Yunze said without evasion, "I haven''t seen the final situation of brother''s research. I don''t know whether I can keep up with the difficulty coefficient... But it''s obviously unrealistic to rely on me alone to make the finished product." "But I..." he Yining had a resistance in his eyes. "Why do you believe me? There is no absolute thing in the world, isn''t there?" "No, yes!" Li Yunze''s eyes tightly locked he Yining, "why do you prefer your love for me, that''s absolute!" Why did Ning red her eyes? She wanted to say that it was because of her that the original research led to the tragedy of brother Yunhao later. Li Yunze, why do you believe me?! "Maybe there are thousands of possibilities, but only one may not..." Li Yunze gently touched he Yining''s cheek and slowly said the second half of the sentence, "... He Yining won''t hurt me." A thunderbolt of "bang" exploded in why Yining''s mind. She looked at Li Yunze and slightly widened her pupils. She didn''t know whether it was surprise or surprise, and suddenly stepped back. Li Yunze''s hand was still held in place and frowned slightly, as if he didn''t understand why he would rather be in the state at the moment. Tears are full of eyes, but he Yining doesn''t dare to let it fall. Li Yunze firmly believed that she would not hurt him, but she did The breath became short and hesitant. Why would you rather bite your lips and tightly tighten the center of your eyebrows. Li Yunze looked at such he Yining and thought she was afraid that he would not break through that barrier in the future. At the moment, he knew that if he Yining was not taken down first, more anxiety would only spread in her heart. "He Yining, both public and private... You have to marry me!" Li Yunze put down his hand and locked his eyes on he Yining. "Now, tell me, do you want to take a responsibility for big brother and work hard for our future with me?" Chapter 1497 Tears, in the end, rolled down under the heavy burden of the eyes He Yining didn''t move, but looked at Li Yunze''s line of sight. The corners of his mouth kept moving and trembling, but he couldn''t pronounce a syllable. She wants to compensate, she wants to work hard, but these can''t suppress her fear. Everyone hopes that the secret can be hidden for a lifetime, but they also understand that it is impossible. But even if you understand, how many people can speak out unscrupulously? Li Yunze said that the only person in the world who won''t hurt him is her, but what''s the truth?! "Yining, I want you to marry me, not oppressed by external forces." Li Yunze said, "but now I can only do extraordinary things by extraordinary means..." "Beichen and Jian Mo can write the love of ''I love Chen'' after they get married. Why can''t we go hand in hand with each other in the morning and dusk?" "I know that if I let you answer now, you will still be worried. After all, there are obstacles between us that need to be crossed..." "Can rather, you have your uneasiness, I also have my worries." "I want an answer, an answer you won''t and can''t destroy unilaterally!" "It''s your dream to marry me. Now, it''s my persistence to get a certificate with you..." "Li Yunze, what if everything is not so beautiful?" He Yining choked and asked. His tears had blurred his sight. "Who can live in this beautiful world?" Li Yunze asked, "there are wizards in fairy tales. How can we imagine that there are no obstacles for us to cross?" "What if you can''t cross it?" Why rather roar, close your eyes at the same time, a large number of tears were squeezed out. Li Yunze came forward and gently wiped the tears on he Yining''s cheek with his finger. "That only shows... I don''t love you enough!" He Yining looked at Li Yunze. This sentence shocked her more than anything, and made her not know how to respond, and even became greedy in an instant. Isn''t it Love can really dissolve everything?! "Yining, now, can you put down the burden in your heart and gamble with me?" Li Yunze asked with he Yining''s face. He Yining''s eyelashes trembled slightly. Under Li Yunze''s burning sight, he nodded instinctively and didn''t think about it at all. Li Yunze''s eyes were full of surprises, and then he was ecstatic to pull why he would rather into his arms and tightly circle He knew that his silly would agree. He knew that such an approach was feasible. Beichen said that love sometimes needs scheming Originally, really! "Yining, do you know, I didn''t think you would promise tonight. I just want to give you a preventive injection first, and then I''ll grind it hard, and you will promise..." "Silly Ning, you just love me. You can''t love me. You have to support me!" "Ah..." Li Yunze sighed and said happily, "thank you, my silly Ning." ¡­¡­ Sister-in-law Feng sat alone in the room, covered with incandescent lanterns. The room that was originally alone seemed to suddenly become very lonely. In the past, a person didn''t feel anything because he knew that he had a daughter working hard in the outside world. But now, Qu Weiwei is in Los Angeles prison. For sister-in-law Feng, it seems that she has lost her backbone in an instant. "Alas..." Sister-in-law Feng sighed heavily, looked around, got up with her legs pressed, and walked to the bedroom where Qu Weiwei hadn''t lived for a few days. When she found the box that Qu Weiwei said, sister-in-law Feng looked at the intention contract and design drawing inside. After reading it for a while, she took out the phone number paper. She doesn''t want to touch her daughter''s things and doesn''t need her daughter''s money to provide for the elderly. Living in this small town, she is quiet and has nothing to spend. But she can''t let Weiwei really stay in prison all the time. It will not only consume her youth, but also torture people. Sister-in-law Feng trembled with her hand holding the phone number and understood that it is a society of money and power. If she wants her daughter to come out, the necessary management is necessary Sister-in-law Feng put down the box, took the number out, found the mobile phone, and dialed out according to the number. "Hello..." the other party said in English. Sister-in-law Feng was stunned and didn''t react for a while. "Hello? Hello..." Hello, sister-in-law, is your voice in Chinese "Oh, Hello!" The other party changed Chinese. Although it was a little stiff, it was obvious that he could understand it. Sister-in-law Feng sighed, "Hello, I''m Qu Weiwei''s mother." "Qu Weiwei?" "It''s Vivian..." "Vivian!" The other party was obviously surprised, and then asked, "Vivian''s mother, what''s the matter?" Sister-in-law Feng conveyed Qu Weiwei''s meaning, "my daughter said, according to the price she said before." "OK, no problem, great!" The other party said excitedly, "I''ll talk to the boss and then contact you... Oh, by the way, my name is Jason." "OK, I''ll take this number." Sister-in-law Feng smiled and said, "thank you, Jason." ¡°OK£¡¡± Jason looked deep. "Bye." After hanging up the phone, Jason touched his chin, looked at the sun that had just risen into the air and meditated. "Jason, if there''s any problem, I''ll ask someone to call you. Call Meng Yi and tell him the design drawing, and he''ll know." Jason thought of what Qu Weiwei said when she left. He smiled and dialed Meng Yi. "What''s the matter?" Meng Yi asked. Jason smiled. "It was a wise choice for you to arrange me to meet Vivian." After sighing, he said, "Vivian''s mother just called me and said about the design drawings..." After sparing such a big circle, I finally told Meng Yi that, naturally, it must not be a design drawing. "I always thought that Qu Weiwei knew those things more or less. Although she didn''t necessarily understand what it was at that time, so many things happened later. It''s estimated that she can be contacted and guessed." Meng Yi''s eyes gradually gave off a sharp light. "Do you know how to get it?" Asked Jason. "After working with Qu Weiwei for so many years, you can always find clues." Meng Yi said slowly, "now, I''m worried that the design drawing is really just the design drawing, not a useful thing." "Mon, I have a hunch that it must be what we want." Jack raised his eyebrow. "My hunch has always been accurate." "Hope..." Meng Yi smiled. "Eric has contacted me. As long as we get our things, we can stop in our life." Jason smiled. "When it''s done, we must have a good drink." "Yes." Meng Yi answered, "contact me when you get the design drawing." "OK." Chapter 1498 the second day. Li Yunze got up early in the morning and didn''t care about the time. He called ma Guangming directly and said why Yining didn''t go to work today. Whether he Yining comes to work or not is not a big deal for Ma Guangming. He is more concerned about whether he can get the share of Huakang pharmaceutical in the next year. For Li Yunze, it''s not a big deal. The bright and the dark also mention Ma Guangming. With such convenience, it''s the credit of why Ning. Ma Guangming can achieve the position of dean. He is not a fool and understands it immediately. "Dr. he can also apply for secondary vocational school. A doctor with medical ethics and hard work like her must be the first to consider..." Ma Guangming tentatively flattered. Li Yun frowned slightly, "just follow the normal procedures. I don''t want to make a special case." "Yes, doctor he doesn''t need any special cases." Ma Guangming sat on the bed in his vest, smiling with a smile on his face. Li Yunze didn''t say anything more. After saying goodbye, he hung up the phone. Glancing at the direction of the bedroom, Li Yunze''s mouth was filled with a deep smile It''s a long night''s dream. He and silly Ning will go to get the certificate first. Li Yunze, who was excited about it, was going to steam an egg. Why can he eat it later. Put the steamed egg into the steamer, and Li Yunze went to wash He had just finished washing, so he Ning just got up and came out. "You wash it first, and the steamed eggs should be ready. When we finish eating, we''ll go out together..." Li Yunze said. "Oh!" He Yining answered the voice vaguely, rubbed his eyes, and didn''t react. Li Yunze looked at her, and the smile on the corners of his mouth deepened. He went to the kitchen to turn off the fire, and then planned to get his clothes and take the wedding photos later. When people passed the bathroom, the bathroom door was suddenly opened. Li Yunze subconsciously stopped and looked at he Yining with a surprised face. "What''s the matter? There are cockroaches?" Li Yunze asked jokingly. "Li Yunze, why should we go out together?" He Yining asked. Although they all live together recently, they haven''t gone out together Of course, it''s also related to her not going to the hospital because she had to write a medical report before. "You promised me last night to marry me!" Li Yunze said seriously and slightly scraped together, "Yining, even if you tell me now that you repent, I''ll tie you to the Civil Affairs Bureau." Why Ning screwed down the center of his eyebrows and his expression was full of tangles. She compromised, but she didn''t expect to get the certificate so soon! "Don''t worry, we won''t release the news about our license first, but the media will slowly reveal that we''re going to get married..." Li Yunze gently clicked he Yining''s forehead. "Although we''re not surprised, we can play tricks, so we need to play thoroughly, huh?" He Yining nodded instinctively under the enchanted voice of Li Yunze. "Go, wash." "Oh..." why should I rather answer the voice and turn around and close the door. Li Yunze laughed, shook his head and sighed, "silly Ning!" Hearing the sound of water inside, Li Yunze went to the bedroom and opened the small but full wardrobe. There are several sets of his clothes inside, and the rest are Yining''s. Like ordinary women, Yining will like to buy clothes and will always feel that there is one less in the wardrobe However, in the past, he Yining''s cabinets were all luxury goods, but now they are all affordable. The sight fell on a set of light blue shirts pushed to the edge of the wardrobe. There was a unique logo on the collar, which looked like a cross, although it was not itself. Li Yunze knows that he Yining prepared to take photos of his marriage certificate last time. There are men''s and women''s styles and two pieces. With a smile, Li Yunze took out his shirt and took off the transparent plastic bag covered on it "Ding Dong..." Suddenly, something fell out of his chest pocket and rolled with a touch of light. Li Yunze didn''t move, but moved his sight with the rolling of the ring Until the ring touched the wall, turned in place for a few times, and lay there quietly. Li Yunze put down his shirt and walked over. He looked down at the ring on the ground. After a while, he slowly squatted down and picked up the ring This is the ring he proposed to Yining in the medical department of Luoda. It represents'' 1 + 1 = 1 '', which was "thrown away" by Yining Something exploded in his heart and filled all Li Yunze''s nerves with brilliance. He was ecstatic. Yes, Yining loves him so much. How can he really throw away the ring? He searched all night and didn''t find it. Why didn''t he think of it? Li Yunze looked at the ring and giggled. Gradually, he smiled He Yining came out of the bathroom and heard Li Yunze''s laughter. She frowned slightly and looked around, and finally returned to the room. When seeing the ring in Li Yunze''s hand, why Ning was stunned, stood in place and forgot his reaction. Li Yunze didn''t get up, but raised the ring in his hand towards he Yining. He smiled like a big child, as if he had accidentally got his favorite toy. "Miss He Yining, can you explain this ring to Mr. Li Yunze?" Li Yunze asked. He Yining bit his lower lip, and his face was embarrassed because the secret was found. She subconsciously wanted to escape, turned around and wanted to run outside Unfortunately, it''s a little late. Li Yunze pressed why Yining on the wall and said in a low voice, "why Yining, you are stupid, I am stupid... I really deserve it!" Why would you rather bite your lips and lift your eyes to look at Li Yunze "I really believed you would throw away the ring..." Li Yunze breathed a little fast. When he Yining wanted to speak, he suddenly held her lips and kissed her without any prelude. The deep tongue swept every inch of the skin in he Yining''s mouth, as if to devour her He Yining can''t stand Li Yunze''s madness, but he can only give himself some space to breathe with his actions. "He Yining, you''ve been my li Yunze all your life. Do you hear me?" Li Yunze let go of he Yining. At the same time, he already put the ring on her finger, "don''t take it down again. Don''t take it down in this life!" He Yining gasped. Although his heart was still astringent, he said with red eyes: "Li Yunze, as long as you can..." she bit her lower lip, "as long as you can, I''m willing to work hard for us." One day, when you find that brother Yunhao''s business is actually me, and you are willing to try to work with me, I will work hard for us This time, I won''t escape! Just because I am by your side, even if I am painful, I am happy Chapter 1499 Why would you rather sit in the car and look at the ring on your fingers and smile at the corners of your mouth. Li Yunze glanced at why Yining, smiled and said, "Yining, find me a box in the toolbox, treasure blue..." "Huh?" Why Ning Leng answered, "Oh!" She leaned forward slightly, opened the toolbox and saw the royal blue box Li Yunze said. At a glance, it looked like a jewelry box. He Yining was puzzled, took it out and asked, "this?" Li Yunze looked, "well," his vision fell back to the front, "open it and have a look." He Yining had guessed that it was for her. Although there was less surprise, there was more expectation. Open An English ring as like as two peas and a face is seen. Why do we rather frown and pick up the face? It is the same design as the difference between face and finger. "This is..." he Yining took the ring and looked at Li Yunze with mixed feelings in his heart. Li Yunze glanced at her and said faintly, "it''s you..." he paused. "Just the day before you sent away one by one, I went to get this ring. I originally planned to go to you after reading one by one, but before I had time, mayor Fu''s son temporarily entered the operating room, and I rushed back to Huakang." Why Ning Zhe''s mouth, unspeakable guilt and entanglement in his heart, and his hand holding the ring was also tight. "Yining, it''s not what you think. I didn''t want to work hard for the two of us." Li Yunze sighed and took his hand. He Yining''s hand was pinched in the palm. "It''s just that some things are really too coincidental. Coincidentally, we can''t resist." He Yining has a sour nose. "I''m not strong enough and brave enough..." As she spoke, she lowered her eyes. Even at this moment, she was worried and afraid. Li Yunze squeezed he Yining''s hand again, then let her go and said, "that''s because I didn''t give you enough sense of security." "Li Yunze, i..." why did Ning zhe shut his mouth and was beaten back by a smile from Li Yunze before he said it. "As long as you don''t say you won''t get the certificate with me at the moment, you can do anything." Li Yunze had a joke in his voice, "but even if you say it, it''s useless. You have to get this certificate." He Yining looked at Li Yunze''s appearance, bit his lower lip and was amused, "scoundrel." "Yes!" Li Yunze raised his eyebrow. "I''ve found it now. It''s useful for you to pester me. Compared with you before, I''m thin skinned..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Why Ning''s lips moved back and forth, trying to refute, but he felt that it was a fact. Li Yunze smiled, stopped at the red light and stared at he Yining quietly. "Yining, many people said that we walked 10000 steps together, but when we finally reached 9999 steps, we didn''t go. Do you know why?" "Because of fear, ten thousand steps later, it''s parting." Why should I say it quietly. "But is it really parting?" Li Yunze asked. He Yining tightened his mind. "If we stop before 10000 steps, there is only one result... We can take the final step. It is possible that we can get the injury before stopping, but we can also get unlimited possibilities." Li Yunze glanced at the eye signal light, started the car and said, "so, you know, why did you stop before?" He Yining was silent, bit his lower lip and suddenly said, "let me tell you one by one that she will take good care of herself." "Change the topic..." Li Yunze sighed and shook his head, but the corners of his mouth overflowed with a smile. "It''s OK to send it out. Let''s have a little two person world first." He Yining frowned immediately. Li Yunze looked at he Yining. "Fool..." he shook his head, but did not explain. On the one hand, starting the research of big brother will be dangerous. If children appear in the public view, they will become the primary target of attack, just like Xiaojie On the other hand, he doesn''t want to face up to what he and Yining have to face now. In that way, Yining, who is already in a sensitive period, will always be imprisoned in a dead end, which is not what he wants. The connection with 11 is connected by blood. No matter 11 knows now that he is his father and his daughter, he is always his daughter, isn''t he?! At least, the same pay, one by one subconsciously will favor themselves, rather than Jin shaosi. ¡­¡­ Look at the front door of the Civil Affairs Bureau. Why should I rather talk about it. She thought everything would come to an abrupt end, but she didn''t expect to come to the place where the sacred marriage began so soon "Get off!" Li Yunze thought why he would rather look than walk. He Yining gently fanned his eyes, and the corners of his mouth suddenly overflowed with a smile, which was very light and illusory. "Li Yunze, you have to think clearly..." why Ning still looks at the direction of the Civil Affairs Bureau, "maybe you regret it, and I won''t divorce." "Then let''s learn from Chen Yu and Jinxi, meet each other and feel pain together!" Li Yunze said, "after all, there is such a thing involved. They are not willing to let go easily. In that way, they can always find a solution." He Yining took back his sight and looked at Li Yunze. His smile deepened. "What are you waiting for?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows and both got off the bus. Li Yunze and he Yining are the first couple today because they came early and it''s not a special day. "Li Shao, why don''t you say it in advance..." the director of the Civil Affairs Bureau said with a smile on his face, "I''ll arrange it for you." "What''s the arrangement? You can also arrange to send me a limited edition marriage certificate." Li Yunze joked. The director was immediately amused. "All right, let''s get the license first when we come here today. The director will be busy if he has something to do." "I''ll go to the office if I have anything." Li Yunze nodded and watched the director leave before he Yining took a picture. The lovers in blue shirts are installed in front of the red curtain, their heads are slightly inclined to each other, and the corners of their mouths are shallow and upward, "drawing" a heart. The cameraman looked at the picture and was surprised. He couldn''t help laughing and said, "you are the most husband and wife I''ve seen recently." "Can''t you and every couple say that?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "Of course not." The cameraman smiled. "I''m a photographer. I don''t need to please new people... See for yourself." The cameraman handed the camera to the two people, and his fingers scratched on the small screen, "a natural heart, I can rarely take such harmonious photos." He Yining and Li Yunze seemed to have telepathy. At the same time, they looked at each other and smiled. In one photo, two people "draw" a heart. When the steel seal fell, the staff pushed two red notebooks in front of the two people and said "Congratulations", Li Yunze and he Yining knew clearly that no matter what happened in the future, they had more fetters. Chapter 1500 "Congratulations, Mrs. Li." Li Yunze said with a smile, "as usual." Why Ning''s mouth overflowed with a satisfied smile, but his eyes were slightly red, "Congratulations, Mr. Li, finally married Mrs. Li." Li Yunze smiled, regardless, why would he rather kiss after fishing Such a scene is no wonder in the Civil Affairs Bureau. But people always feel pleasing to the eyes for beautiful things. Li Yunze''s kind of handsome and elegant with a faint evil spirit, why should he rather show the beauty of quiet aura? At the moment, they are wearing lovers'' clothes, one of them is holding a marriage certificate, and kissing under the witness of a notary, which is not only a kind of beautiful blessing, but also a kind of expectation for the future ¡­¡­ "Xiao Fang, did Li Shao come today?" Yan Miao looked at the time and asked. The nurse Xiaofang shook her head. "I haven''t seen anyone yet. At that time, I went in to deliver the weekly report, and there was no one in the office." Yan Miao frowned, "he said yesterday that he would come to the meeting outside God today. It''s still half an hour and no one can see..." "Why don''t you call?" Xiaofang asked. Yan Miao sighed and nodded, "make a phone call." Xiao Fang answered, took the phone and dialed Li Yunze, "Li Shao, doctor Yan asked me to ask you, can''t you pass the meeting outside God?" "Let director Li preside over it. I won''t go." Li Yunze just sat down in the driver''s seat, looked at he Yining and said with a smile, "I have something important to do today." "Big event..." Xiao Fang grinned. Li Yunze was still a very serious person to them. He was unable to accept such uncertain words. "You ask yanmiao to answer the phone." Li Yunze said. "OK." Xiao Fang answered and raised the microphone to Yan Miao, "doctor Yan, Li Shao asked you to answer the phone." Yan Miao answered, "Li Shao, director Li asked me to ask you..." "I just got the certificate with Yining. I''m too excited to preside over the precision meeting." Li Yunze said with an eyebrow. Yan Miao was still spinning in his mouth after half of what he said. Suddenly, he was thrown over by Li Yunze, which made the whole person unable to respond. Li Yunze did not continue to say, waiting. "Shit, Li Yunze, what did you just say?" Yan Miao asked directly. The whole nurse station looked at yanmiao one after another. One by one, they widened their eyes and even swallowed secretly. They didn''t know what Li Yunze said, which made yanmiao react like this. The most important thing is that yanmiao dares to talk to Li Shao like this "I said, Yining and I just got the license." Li Yunze smiled. "Is it true or false this time?" "Really!" "Have you received it or are you ready..." "It has been received and has national legal effect!" "OK, really!" Yan Miao laughed, completely ignoring the people looking at her and sighed, "Li Yunze, good job!" "The license is not going to be made public for the time being. Just know." Li Yunze explained. "Well, you''re busy. I''ll tell director Li." Yanmiao hung up the phone and was about to leave when she was pulled by the nurse. "Doctor Yan, what''s the matter?" Everyone asked curiously. Yanmiao looked at the crowd and knew that he had just reacted because he was too surprised, which made everyone curious. "If..." Yan Miao joked, "I tell you, Li Shao just confessed to me. Do you believe it?" "Don''t believe it!" Everyone shook his head without thinking. "But it''s true!" Yan Miao lied and was serious. Everyone gave her a white eye one after another, and they were busy and went "Hey, what''s your attitude? Can''t Li Shao confess to me?" Yan Miao said discontentedly. "Doctor Yan, it''s daytime now. It''s unhealthy for your body and mind to daydream too much..." the head nurse outside God said painstakingly, "there''s going to be a meeting soon. Hurry up and be good!" "..." Yan Miao bared his teeth angrily, "you... Won!" Yanmiao turned to find director Li. At the moment of turning around, his angry appearance completely disappeared. As he walked, he took out his mobile phone and made an expression in their small group. You don''t need to say anything more. Why would you rather understand yanmiao''s meaning. He Yining replied in the small group: even if I do everything in the end, I want to be happy at this moment. Fang Zihan replied: fireworks moment, but we all love, a truth. The three women sent out a picture of fireworks one after another, and everything was silent. ¡­¡­ Emperor group. "Chen Shao, it''s relatively simple to get these medical utensils in. It''s a little difficult to get larger medical instruments." Xiao Jing wrung his eyebrows slightly. "I suggest digging a passage from the villa next door, entering materials on both sides at the same time, and then assembling." Gu Beichen looked at the drawing, pondered, nodded, "yes." After a pause, his eagle eyes looked slightly at Xiao Jing and said, "although someone may not be staring, you should be careful. This research is of great significance. There is no finished product, and the tragedy of that year can''t happen again." Xiao Jing is the one who followed the Dragon owl. Naturally, he understands that what Li Yunze is going to study now is the impact and temptation on the dark market. "I know." Gu Beichen nodded and motioned Xiao Jing to do it. After Xiao Jing left, Gu Beichen pondered slightly and dialed Luo Xiaomi "Little uncle, why did you suddenly call me today?" Luo Xiaomi asked in a crisp voice, "do you want to give me your exclusive interview?" "Well thought!" "Hum!" "Why did Luo Doo Li call me now?" "There is no exclusive interview. Would you like to give you a little information?" Gu Beichen''s voice was always calm. Luo Xiaomi rolled his eyes. "What my uncle can give on his own initiative must be inconvenient for the big media. It won''t be too abrupt if I''m related to a rich family... Right?!" "No?" Gu Beichen is light. "Yes, yes!" Luo Xiaomi said hurriedly, "even if it is used, it should be. The material given by my little uncle is also good material no matter how small." Two days later. Luo Xiaomi''s layout publications were released and sold out in less than half a day. The printing factory urgently printed more copies The news entitled "is love a show or spend life together" quickly spread in microblog and circle of friends. Some time ago, it was also revealed that he Yining, who had a romantic trip to Paris with major Jin, was in the limelight again at this free clinic in the mountainous area. It was revealed that Li Yunze proposed to he Yining in front of the statue of the medical department of Luoda, even before Jin shaosi''s romantic trip to Paris! Suddenly, he Yining caused quite a storm from his previous medical lawsuit to his private style Chapter 1501 "What''s the matter with the complicated love between Li Shao and sister he Xuejie?" "I just want to know whether their love is a show or true..." "Should it be true? Sister he Xuejie''s lack of pursuit is about to become a legend of our medical school." "But Li Shao doesn''t like sister he Xuejie. It''s also true in the past." "Yes, my professor used to be in the same class with Li Shao, and I''ve heard of it..." "But..." a little girl said weakly, "I think Li Shao really likes sister he Xuejie. How hard he proposed last time. If it''s not for his beloved woman, I don''t think a man can show like this, and it''s not a star." "That''s right. After all, Li Shao''s identity doesn''t need to show at all. Moreover, it was only within the scope of medical school." "Well, here comes the problem." A boy said, "who sent the news?" As soon as this was asked, everyone looked at each other. As a student of medical school, we all know that if we want to kill Li Yunze or the Li family in the medical field, it is easier than crushing an ant. Naturally, no one will go outside to reveal the proposal of medical school. Everyone suddenly fell silent, one by one silently looked at each other, and then looked at their mobile phones. Although Li Yunze''s news will have a smaller audience than Gu Beichen. However, as a rich family in Los Angeles and the Li family with high medical status, it still caused a lot of agitation But soon, people in the media industry found a problem. That is, while the big media are guiding public opinion, there are also two groups of Navy tearing up. While talking about why Yining and Li Yunze are making a show, they are medical scum. There are also a group of people who are oriented towards the good... Saying that the combination of two swords in the medical field will be the gospel of society. Jin shaosi slightly frowned at the news, took out his mobile phone, and just wanted to call he Yining, he received a text message. Open it, why did Ning send it: ACE, I don''t know what to tell you, that is... Li Yunze and I got the certificate. Jin shaosi looked at the words "got the certificate". For a moment, his heart seemed to stop beating. He looked at it like this, and a faint smile overflowed from the corners of his mouth. Whether it was astringent or gratifying, even he couldn''t tell Yining, you finally want to try. Being around Li Yunze has always been your dream and goal, haven''t you? Knowing the result, it still hurts The mobile phone screen dimmed. Jin shaosi closed his eyes and slowly opened them. He had hidden the astringency of the fundus of his eyes. However, such a surface can deceive others, but it can''t deceive yourself. Jin shaosi called he Yining: "Yining, you did it..." "Ace, i..." he Yining bit his lower lip. "I got it the day before yesterday. I wanted to tell you, but I don''t know how to say it." "When facing my family, some joy is always as coy as a little girl. I don''t know where to start. I understand." Jin shaosi''s voice was so calm that he couldn''t hear much emotion. "I just want to work hard for him again." He Yining said so, with a touch of self mockery across his eyes. In fact, no matter how many times it hurts, as long as it is Li Yunze, she will never make the last effort?! Jin shaosi was silent. "Now that he has received the certificate, today''s news..." "Whatever you say outside, I''m used to it." "He Ning may have found something to play with on purpose." He Yining didn''t tell Jin shaosi about Li Yunze''s plan. This time is not only important to him, but also the confidentiality of brother Yunhao''s achievements. Whether she is in guilt or whatever, she will try to help Li Yunze. "Deliberately..." Jin shaosi sneered. "The last time I had an affair with you, everyone thought you were with me. Therefore, Li Yunze used the same means to fight me back. Even if you don''t disclose the facts you have obtained, you should also let everyone know that you are his?" He Yining was silent. "It''s really childish." Jin shaosi''s eyes fell on the computer screen, and a new wave of news had come out. A microblog small V uploaded several fuzzy photos. At first glance, the pixels of the mobile phone are not high, and they are taken through reflective glass. However, it can still be vaguely distinguished that Li Yunze and he Yining eat in a restaurant dressed as lovers. There is one, and their interaction is still very close. Suddenly, the Internet exploded, and everyone fell to the two people together. Those who opposed the show gradually couldn''t resist the "crushing" of the army. ¡­¡­ Meng Yi dials the TV station and pauses when he sees Li Yunze''s news "The recent big moves of the Li family are even more promising." With a professional smile in his mouth, the news anchor said, "al Research Institute has begun to enter instruments and research supplies, and the personnel entering the Institute are also making selection in the early stage..." "According to the news from Huakang public relations department, the Institute will make targeted research on some common specific drugs, and there will be a large research..." Meng Yi suddenly narrowed his eyes and crossed Li Yunhao''s research in his mind. "It is reported that if the research is successful, it will not only be beneficial to patients, but also make an unpredictable contribution to the medical community..." Meng Yi''s narrow eyes suddenly opened, and a touch of greed crossed the bottom of his eyes. "Just as the al Research Institute was working closely, Li Yunze, the only successor of the Li family, and he Yining, a resident of the Department of Obstetrics and Gynecology of Shuya hospital, the good thing was approaching..." At the same time, the picture of Li Yunze proposing to he Yining in the Department of medicine of Luoda appeared on the screen, and the picture of the two wearing lovers'' clothes and eating in the restaurant. Meng Yi sniffed at Li Yunze and said slowly, "be happy now, just don''t know... Can you be so happy when you know that Li Yunhao will come to such an end and why he Ning is the cause?" Meng Yi took the remote control and turned off the TV. Look at the time. He took his cell phone and dialed Jason "Are you there?" Jason looked at the sign of the town and raised his eyebrows. "Just arrived, he called Vivian''s mother and we made an appointment to meet at a noodle shop in the town." "Yes." Meng Yi answered, "take a picture of me directly after you get something." ¡°OK£¡¡± Jason answered, looked ahead and hung up. The town is not big. Just ask someone about the noodle shop and you can find it. Sister Feng held the box in her hand and kept looking out through the window I don''t know why, she always feels uneasy. Such uneasiness is the same as when she watched the master and wife chase the young lady. Sister Feng frowned, took back her sight and looked at the box in her hand Chapter 1502 Sister-in-law Feng pinched the box with her dry and wrinkled hands, and the uneasiness became more intense. Look around. I haven''t seen Jason yet. Sister-in-law Feng thought about it and called him to tell him that she didn''t want to sell. Although such behavior is very bad, she is inexplicably restless, which makes her always feel that something has happened. As soon as the mobile phone was taken out, I heard the waiter scream with joy, and then came the voice of a flower maniac, "Wow, so handsome!" Sister Feng subconsciously looked at the door and saw a foreign man standing there, looking left and right. Jason saw sister-in-law Feng, his eyes twinkled, and then stepped over. Ignoring the gaze of the noodle shop, he went to sit down opposite sister-in-law Feng, grinned and said hello, "Hello, I''m Jason." "Hello..." sister-in-law Feng unconsciously shook the box and didn''t know what was wrong with her. It''s just a design drawing. She also read the contract. It''s really the buyout right of the jewelry design drawing, which is 300000. Nothing''s wrong. What''s she upset about? "I''m glad I can have surprises when I think I don''t have a chance to cooperate." Jason spoke Chinese, but his tone was a little stiff. "I brought a formal contract that can be signed today..." At the right time, a waiter came to order. Jason looked at the picture and pointed at it casually. The waiter was obviously surprised in his eyes, but he still nodded. Jason hurriedly sent the waiter, took out the contract from his bag and handed it to sister-in-law Feng. The contract is still in both Chinese and English. When sister-in-law Feng saw that the buyout amount was originally "300000 US dollars", she was shocked. "We are very sincere to cooperate with Miss Vivian," Jason said with a smile. "You just need to sign the entrustment agreement and the contract in your hand and give it to me, and the money will be credited to the account within three days." Sister-in-law Feng clenched the contract and felt uneasy because it didn''t go away. She sighed and looked up. "Mr. Jason, I''m sorry. Maybe you can''t understand what I said, but I still want to express what I mean." Jason raised his eyebrows and nodded, and a strange emotion crossed his blue eyes. "Well, my daughter asked me to sell the design. I contacted you because I thought about something." Sister-in-law Feng said, "but it''s what my daughter puts next to me now. We Oriental people have a saying that is to read..." "Oh, I''ve studied your saying that relatives and friends who are not around have something to see... Oh, see things and think of people." "That''s right." Sister Feng nodded, "so..." Jason frowned, "Vivian''s mother, you should know that I flew from the United States because Vivian is inconvenient." He looked distressed. "I even told my boss this time that I would go back with the design drawings. If I failed, I''m afraid I''ll lose my job." Sister-in-law Feng was stunned and looked at Jason with distress on her face. "In fact, your design can be sold to me. Your daughter''s things should not be just this design." Jason sighed, "but if I don''t get the design, I''ll lose a good job. I don''t think you want to see it." Sister-in-law Feng looks a little loose. Her problems are always difficult for others to bear mistakes. Besides, this is just a design drawing. Jason looked at her words and expressions, saw that sister-in-law Feng had some Panasonic, and continued to make persistent efforts to lobby with a weak posture Sure enough, his direction is right. "All right!" Sister-in-law Feng twisted in her heart, but she still promised Jason. Noodles came up at this time, a bowl of hot noodles floating with fragrant pepper. Jason pushed his face aside. Afraid that sister-in-law Feng would change her mind, he quickly took out his pen and said, "can you sign first?" Sister-in-law Feng took the pen with trembling hands, looked at Jason, and finally signed her name on the contract. Jason had a dark streak in the bottom of his eyes. When sister-in-law Feng pushed the contract to him, he took over and signed his name. "Within three days, the money will reach the account." Jason looked at the contract, gave sister-in-law Feng a copy, and then went to get the box. Qu Weiwei put the money to him. She said it was for her mother just in case. So he just became a middleman. There is the original contract and design drawings in the box. Jason sees that it''s just a jewelry design. It''s not special. I don''t know if there will be any information said by Meng Yi. "Eat first..." sister-in-law Feng said. Jason nodded, took the noodles, looked at the chopsticks, frowned and ate the noodles in a clumsy way. However, when he entered his mouth face to face, the spicy taste immediately turned his whole face cyan ¡­¡­ Li Yunze looked at the news of continuous fermentation with a headache. There was a wave of Navy constantly brushing. He and he Yining were making a show. They should not be a doctor, but go to the entertainment industry. After taking the mobile phone, Li Yunze called Gu Beichen. "Huh?" An indifferent voice came from the other side. "You are too dedicated to make complaints about this Navy," Li Yunze Tucao. "Why don''t you put down the pen slowly and lean on Beichen?" she said "Beichen," Li Yunze was worried, "do you think it''s useful?" "No one can guarantee such a thing." Gu Beichen''s eyes sank. "After all, that research is too tempting for drug tycoons." Li Yunze has a dignified mood. On the one hand, he hopes to complete his brother''s research, on the other hand, he is always worried about accidents. Many things have two sides, good and bad "There''s another point," Gu Beichen said, rubbing the center of his eyebrows and alleviating his fatigue. "Will the ink palace stare?" The economic support of the Mo palace is poison and ammunition. If Shi Shaoqin focuses on this matter, Gu Beichen knows it very well. I''m afraid it''s difficult to avoid it. "Now as long as the early equipment goes in and is not found, it should be fine." Li Yunze pondered and said. "Yes." Gu Beichen agrees with this statement, "as long as you and Yining continue to live a normal life, Xiaomi broke the news first. Everyone knows the relationship between you and me. Xiaomi is my niece again. Naturally, you are not good to her." This is also why Gu Beichen let Xiaomi break the news. Whether it''s Chen Xuan''s entertainment or the media under the emperor''s banner, others will have more ideas. Why Ning''s friend Fang Zihan can explode naturally, but the title can''t be too sharp, so it can''t achieve the effect Therefore, Luo Xiaomi has become the best choice. After all, she didn''t use the people around her for her performance. "Now I can only hope that Shi Shaoqin will not pay attention..." Li Yunze said what they were still worried about. Chapter 1503 Shi Shaoqin''s "possessive desire" for Gu Beichen comes from the desire to put him in the dark. But because of this, Shi Shaoqin paid high attention to Gu Beichen. People like him are too smart. If you really want to find something, I''m afraid it''s hard to hide it from him Gu Beichen and Li Yunze are worried, but none of them thought that Shi Shaoqin didn''t pay attention to the things here at the moment. Star is still receiving treatment and doesn''t wake up. Unless necessary, his remaining energy is basically focused on star Whether it''s because of the inner guilt about Jian Mo''s abortion or the "feelings" for Jian Mo and Gu Beichen. Star''s accident is not what he wants to see. ¡­¡­ "Dr. he, you and Li Shao..." "Doctor he, are you really with Li Shao? God, you''ve got Li Yunze''s proud, ten thousand year old single diamond man!" He Yining, a doctor in an office, was not as gossip as outsiders, but he asked curiously. "Why is it so romantic to propose before the Hippocratic sculpture in the Department of medicine of the University of Los Angeles?" A doctor sighed, "the most important thing is that a man like him would eat with you in a couple''s suit. Can I say I''m a little blind?" He Yining blushed and didn''t say that it was because the two people were going to take photos of their marriage certificate that day. Director Yang put his arm on the back of the chair, looked at he Yining and said, "Dr. he, you quietly took down the biggest guy in the medical field. No wonder you are not in surgery. There is a surgeon. You concentrate on attacking other departments. The husband and wife work together. What else will happen in the medical field in the future?" "Director Yang, you flatter me too much." Why did you pull at the corners of your mouth. Director Yang smiled, "Dr. he, you don''t really come to obstetrics and Gynecology because you want to fill the vacancy of Li Shao?" When she asked, the whole office looked at he Yining. Why Ning was stunned, shook his head and said: "at first, I was not interested in this department, because I wanted to be a doctor at first, but also because I saw a doctor delivering a dying pregnant woman, so I thought of going to medical school." He Yining has such a history that everyone is surprised. "Of course, part of the reason now is to fill the lack of Li Yunze''s medicine." He Yining said. It is also helpful for the guidance of public opinion to properly confirm some things from the population concerned. Although she does not disclose the fact that she and Li Yunze have been certified, it is necessary to let everyone know that they are indeed together. "Dr. he," a nurse just sent the case in. Hearing what he Yining said, he immediately survived, "are you really with Li Shao?" "At present, it seems to be..." he Yining is a little embarrassed. As soon as the nurse heard this, she immediately said with envy and loss: "Alas, Los Angeles is talented and handsome. There is only one forest left to the south. It''s hard to have less meat and more wolves!" "Sad", the nurse immediately looked at he Yining with a flattering face, "Dr. he, should you invite everyone to dinner? Well, the kind that Li Shao should also be present." There were gossip nurses eavesdropping at the door. When they heard this, everyone rushed in and agreed immediately. He Yining was a little embarrassed. "There''s no problem eating, but... I''ll ask him." "Li Shao likes you so much that you can handle it as long as you speak." "I''ll try my best." He Yining said and looked at everyone. "You''re still at work. Don''t talk too much about personal things, huh?" After he Yining''s promise, the nurses naturally quit the office without entanglement. Soon, with the Department of Obstetrics and Gynecology of Shuya hospital as the center, the relationship between he Yining and Li Yunze was settled. One pass ten, ten pass a hundred From Shuya to other hospitals, and then from the hospital to the surrounding people, spread out. Even, in the end, there was exaggeration, which spread into how many "stupid" things Li Yunze had done to catch up with her. Li Yunze leaned on the refrigerator. The information in his mobile phone was full, and even the phone kept ringing. He had to transfer the phone to the message box. "How did you publicize it?" Li Yunze frowned at the news of continuous fermentation and why he Ning was cutting vegetables. "These routines were not all used by you to me before. How did they become me to you?" Why Ning zhe smiled, glanced at Li Yunze and said, "you should believe in women''s imagination and gossip ability. They will make you cry and laugh." "I feel it." Li Yunze received his mobile phone, came forward, gently hugged he Yining''s waist, did not affect her cutting vegetables, and said in a low voice, "Yining, we are still married." "And then?" He Yining asked casually. "You chase you so hard, you should be kind to me." Li Yunze felt more and more that the rogue was too good for women. Why did Ning Xinjian tremble, "I have two caesarean sections tomorrow." "I can restrain myself at night." Li Yunze said, his lips have drifted between he Yining''s neck, "twice." The crisp and warm feeling made he Yining unable to concentrate on cutting vegetables, "I''ll cut it later..." This move really worked. Li Yunze didn''t dare to tease immediately. Why should he be peaceful. "By the way, the people in our department want you to invite them to dinner." He Yining said. "OK, I''ll pack a buffet later. All who can come are ready." Li Yunze smiled and said, "it''s just right for you to officially announce that we are together, and then get married when the house is decorated." "Yes." He Yining answered softly, and his heart beat fiercely because of joy. Li Yunze has been accompanying he Yining in the kitchen. The two people have a special tacit understanding, not only because of their love for each other, but also because of their subtle familiarity from small to large. ¡­¡­ Meng Yi has seen the picture passed by Jack to him several times. After zooming in, he looks at the details. This design is familiar, but it is definitely not because he has seen Qu Weiwei design the same style The "buzzing" of the mobile phone vibrated. Meng Yi took it and saw that it was Jackson, so he picked it up. "I''m already at the airport. I''ll board back in an hour." Jason said. "Yes." Meng Yi answered. Jack came to sign the contract and get the jewelry pattern. Naturally, he will go back when he gets it. He can''t leave a horse''s foot. "Do you see any information in it?" Jason asked with concern. Meng Yi looked at the photos on the computer and sighed, "temporarily..." He paused suddenly, and his eyes suddenly gathered somewhere in the pattern. "Meng?" Jason wondered. Meng Yi gradually narrowed his eyes, "Jason, go back first and go to a place for me after landing..." Chapter 1504 "Did you find anything?" Jason asked with a twinkle in his eyes, and there was urgency in his voice. Meng Yi smiled at the corners of his mouth, his eyes filled with the excitement of greed, and slowly said: "after investing in Qu Weiwei for so many years, we should also have some return, otherwise we really wasted too much time and energy." "OK, I''ll call you when I get off the plane." Jason picked his eyebrows and understood Meng Yi''s meaning, "hope is not empty joy." "Yes." Meng Yi hung up after answering the phone, but his sight never left the design drawing. Qu Weiwei is really clever. Unfortunately, it''s a woman who can''t become a climate. If she doesn''t have so much inferiority complex and can even calm down, she will be able to achieve great cause What a pity! Meng Yi pressed down the notebook screen, got up, went to the wine cabinet and opened a bottle of wine. Pour a cup, gently shake the liquor, look deep, slowly raise your hand, raise your glass towards the air, and slowly open your mouth when the corner of your mouth crosses the treacherous smile: "cheers!" Night shrouded the whole city, but neon lit up the night again. The world, whether black or white, is complementary, so that you can always find no real direction in the vastness, but you can find a way out according to the guidance Lost or Qingming, but it''s all a choice. With a clang, Qu Weiwei looked at the washbasin overturned on the ground and spread her freshly washed clothes on the ground. She couldn''t help but scratch a sneer at the corners of her mouth. In prison, there are few means available, but there are only those back and forth. She is not numb and feels angry every time. Wang Xia shook her strong body and deliberately hit Qu Weiwei. "A good dog doesn''t stand in the way, you know?" She looked coldly at the ground, "tell me about you, why can''t you take the basin well every time? You''ve soiled the ground again. If you suddenly make a temporary ward round later..." Before Wang Xia''s words were completely dropped, she heard the sound of rounds outside. The door of the cell was opened, and the female prison guard came in. Seeing the mess on the ground, she immediately cooled her face. "Why are you again?" The female prison guard had a dark face. Qu Weiwei said she was framed at first, but later found out that the female prison guard didn''t listen at all and said, "why don''t you see others framed?" He was blocked back. After several times, Qu Weiwei stopped talking. Wang Xia may just dislike her. As the eldest sister in the cell, she naturally wants to bully her. But prison guards, they must have been taken care of. "Just slipped." Qu Weiwei said in silence and squatted down to pick up the clothes that fell on the ground. Wang Xia sighed strangely like a ruffian woman, "take a bath..." "Ah!" Qu Weiwei suddenly screamed and looked maliciously at Wang Xia. Her stepped hand was still shaking there. Wang Xia looked innocently at Qu Weiwei. She was proud in her eyes, and then turned to the washroom inside. A female prison guard scolded Qu Weiwei outside. Xia Xiao didn''t go out. When she saw Wang Xia coming in, she subconsciously shrank. "Xia Xiao, every time I do that to Qu Weiwei, do you feel particularly relieved?" Wang Xia asked with a smile. Xia Xiao''s body shrank again and didn''t speak. "You don''t tell me, I also know that every time I see your eyes looking at Qu Weiwei, I have resentment. She''s uncomfortable, and you''re obviously relieved..." Wang Xia took off her clothes and opened a shower. Xia Xiao still didn''t speak. She wiped her body silently and wanted to go out. Wang Xia didn''t embarrass her either. Compared with Qu Weiwei, she just felt that Xia Xiao didn''t like her. However, she was very clever when she came in and knew how to judge the situation, which she was very satisfied with. When Xia Xiao went out, the female prison guard had left. She looked at Qu Weiwei, hung her clothes silently and went back to her bed. Wang Xia is right. Every time they bully Qu Weiwei, she is really happy Today, although she is to blame, isn''t she Qu Weiwei contributing to the fire?! Qu Weiwei glanced coldly at the people watching the good play and returned to her bed indifferently. When she saw that the bedding was scratched, she sneered, "that''s all you can do." Then she ignored the angry look of the people and went to bed, regardless of the lint falling on her body, and closed her eyes. He Yining, everything I have today, I will let you return ten times the pain certain! ¡­¡­ "Mom, I just seem to see..." fanned my eyes one by one, and didn''t continue with a grin. Why Ning glanced and saw Li Yunze deliberately appear on one side. He smiled and said, "do you want to talk to ''that uncle''?" He Yining deliberately aggravated the "Uncle" and saw Li Yunze turn his eyes with some dissatisfaction, with an elf like cunning in his eyes. "Good, good!" One by one nodded hurriedly, with instinctive expectation in his eyes. Li Yunze''s heart was about to be sprouted by his daughter. He looked proud and why he Ning picked his chin. See, this is my own He Yining''s heart is also warm. Anyway, she likes Li Yunze now. She''s really happy. Li Yunze was chatting with his daughter. He Yining was watching him. She has never seen Li Yunze interact with her daughter so easily. That kind of fatherly brilliance is naturally emitted, especially charming. "Would you like to hear me play the violin?" One by one, some little coy asked, with an embarrassed but flattering pink on their face. Li Yunze smiled and nodded, "of course, little princess, would you like to play a song for me?" Then he made a gentleman''s gesture. "Mm-hmm!" One by one nodded hurriedly, then took a step to get the violin and began to play. It''s not that kind of genius, but she has a persistence of why to be calm. When she wants to do it, she will be very serious and work hard. This song was learned by her recently. It''s not perfect, but it''s very moving for Li Yunze. Li Yunze listened carefully. At the moment, in his eyes, his daughter is the best in the world Whoever dares to say bad, he will be anxious with anyone! After pulling one by one, he nervously opened his mouth, "does it sound good?" "Nice to hear..." Li Yunze''s eyes were soft and unreasonable. "What my family pulled one by one is the best to hear." "Really?" All eyes are bright. "Of course!" Li Yunze nodded, "at least, I think so." A little heart, full of joy. Although she knew she wasn''t pulling very well, she was so happy when she heard this uncle praising herself. He Yining''s heart was full. For a moment, she suddenly flashed ideas in her mind and blurted out without even thinking more "One by one, you can change the name of ''that uncle'' and call him Dad..." he Ning smiled at his daughter, "because mom got married with him!" Chapter 1505 Why Ning''s words fell, not only Li Yunze was stunned there, but also forgot his reaction one by one. Li Yunze looked at he Yining, his sight was motionless, and wondered if he had just heard something. One by one frowned, blinked, and asked curiously, "Mom, what did you just say?" He Yining just couldn''t wait to say it without thinking. But after that, Li Yunze looked at her like that, and her whole face was very dry and red. Although it is clear that Li Yunze is the biological father of one by one, he has the feeling of becoming a regular spare tire now How could Ning''s face become more red when she was made by her own idea? She didn''t dare to see Li Yunze. She was deeply afraid that her little daughter''s posture was too pretentious. "I said..." why did Ning zhe lower the corner of his mouth and look at the expectant eyes one by one, and suddenly feel that everything is worth it, "one by one, you can call him father. We have obtained the certificate. He is a real father, not in name." Why is Ning so happy and excited that he didn''t find that some of his speech organization blurred the child. One by one, she didn''t think much. At this moment, she was just thinking that she finally had a father. When someone asks her who her father is, she can be very proud to say: my father is a doctor who is especially powerful and more powerful than my mother. He can save many people! Biting her little lips one by one and looking at Li Yunze''s eyes, she was completely shy. The careful thinking of the little girl could sprout Li Yunze''s heart without any cover up. Li Yunze nervously squeezed he Yining''s hand. After looking at her, his eyes were looking forward to looking at her one by one, and even sat upright and waited One by one and Li Yunze looked at each other from a distant and close distance across the video. One waited and the other hesitated because of his coyness. Li Yunze was a little worried. Although he knew that he would not reject him one by one, he didn''t hear that sound, and he felt uneasy. Look around one by one and see why Yining nodding gently towards her, as if he was greatly encouraged. Looking at Li Yunze, he shouted softly, "Dad..." Li Yunze''s nose was sour in an instant, and his heart beat too fast, as if he were going to shock soon. "Good baby..." Li Yunze even had shallow tears in his eyes, which was an excitement from his daughter''s recognition. After a sound of "Dad", one by one, he completely released himself with some excitement. He kept shaking his small body with his iPad and kept repeating the words "I have a father, too". He Yining has never been satisfied with seeing one by one so happy. At this moment, she even thought that no matter what the final result of her and Li Yunze was, as long as she could be happy one by one, she had nothing to ask for in her life Even if she is doomed. The intoxication of the night is that the people in love embrace each other and happily carry out the most initial but gorgeous "movement" of life. Just because, can continue to write the beauty and harmony of life, as well as the ups and downs of the world. For Li Yunze, if he Yining was his childhood nightmare, now she is the dream he most expects to embrace As for why He Yining rubbed in Li Yunze''s arms, found the most comfortable position and gradually fell asleep. Li Yunze is her lifelong dream. Now the dream is around her. What else can she not be satisfied with? Just He Yining''s eyelashes trembled slightly and sighed softly. Whether this dream can be beautiful all the time or will be broken by surprise, she doesn''t know at the moment. At this moment, she just wants to have the happiest state of mind and leave the best memory for herself ¡­¡­ Luo Xiaomi was lying on Li Yunze''s desk. He was flattered and asked, "Uncle Ze..." Li Yunze was writing a medical record without raising his head and allowed Luo Xiaomi to sell there. "Uncle Ze..." Luo Xiaomi shook his body and gently pulled down the sleeve of Li Yunze''s left medical gown. Li Yunze finally had a reaction, looked up, put down his pen, looked at the little girl and said, "Xiaomi!" "Hey!" Luo Xiaomi responded sweetly. Li Yunze smiled and was made to laugh by the little girl who pretended to be confused and obedient. "Your little uncle has given you so much material. What else do you want?" "Yes, I did, but news people have to have a sense of smell of continuous fermentation." Luo Xiaomi said, "Uncle Ze, give me some follow-up materials!" "Do you think it''s possible?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "Of course." Luo Xiaomi resolutely runs through the characteristic of pretending to be a fool, picking his eyebrow and saying, "so uncle Ze has to show you me and trust you more." Li Yunze was angry and laughed by Luo Xiaomi again. He shook his head, picked up his pen and continued to write. At the same time, he said, "I have a material here. Unfortunately, it''s not suitable for you gossip magazine." "What?" Luo Xiaomi''s eyes lit up, "as long as it''s material, I''m not picky about food." Li Yunze didn''t answer. He took a pen and wrote it in his book. Luo Xiaomi also resisted the impulse to ask. When Li Yunze finished writing and saw that he called the nurse in to get the medical records, he opened his mouth: "Uncle Ze, what is it?" "Al Research Institute will purchase a batch of medicinal materials for the latest research." Li Yunze said, "such news is suitable to be published in medical magazines and is most useful to me." Luo Xiaomi sat on the chair angrily, "can''t you give me something about you and aunt Ning?" "You exposed both of us. What else can we have?" Li Yunze said, "everyone is old enough to get married and live together legally..." "Eh, when I went to my little uncle today, I just heard that he asked Xiao Jing to prepare a villa for him. Isn''t it your new house?" Luo Xiaomi asked, "I heard from my uncle that decoration is his wedding gift?" "Yes." Li Yunze sighed, "the richer your little uncle is now, the more stingy he was when he knocked on his villa." "Yes!" Luo Xiaomi agreed and said, "like you, there are a lot of materials. Just look at me and don''t give it!" The problem was turned back again, and Li Yunze couldn''t cry or laugh at once. The two chatted casually. During the period, the nurse came in to get the medical records. When they just heard that they were talking about decorating the villa for marriage, they were surprised. "Send it to Director Li." "OK." The nurse nodded, took the medical record and left the office. Li Yunze looked at the nurse''s back, and a shallow, almost invisible smile crossed the corner of his mouth. This nurse is the most gossip and big mouth outside God! Chapter 1506 Luo Yunran got nothing in his mouth. The little uncle said she couldn''t expose the villa. Even if she wanted to write something, she didn''t dare to reverse it. "Hey!" Luo Xiaomi stood in front of the inpatient building of Huakang hospital. Looking at the bright winter sunshine, he felt that his heart was cool "Obviously, there are so many resources around, but there are very few that can really be used." Luo Xiaomi covered his heart. "The baby is suffering. Why can''t you elders see it at all?" Luo Xiaomi looked back, turned his mouth, whispered "I''d better expose the small fresh meat" and left Huakang hospital. Although Luo Xiaomi couldn''t expose the villa, we talked about it in private The nurse lived up to the nickname of "big mouth". Soon, she secretly told the friendly nurse what she heard from the conversation between Li Yunze and Luo Xiaomi. Of course, after that, add a sentence ''you must not tell others, just know yourself''! Often, the "secret" of blessing such words will spread quickly. In less than two days, the paparazzi with a keen sense of smell began to inquire about the villa area. Soon, someone with good ability found out. The villa area is not very big. It''s about ten buildings back and forth. Half of them have been sold. Recently, there happened to be a house under decoration, and Li Yunze''s is in front of the house, at an oblique angle. The most important thing is that the villa is a good position in the top three of the villa area. "The perspective is not very good..." "Nonsense, people who live here are either rich or expensive. It''s possible for you to shoot casually with a good perspective?" "But the decoration hasn''t started yet. What''s the use of our squatting?" "So, don''t squat, just take some photos of the appearance..." Although several paparazzi chase news and have deep hatred on weekdays, they can communicate calmly in the face of such unexpected materials. After taking a few photos of the appearance of the villa, they went back to work one after another. The news of celebrities and rich people, even a sesame and mung bean, can attract wide attention. Why did he marry Li Yunze, who was going to live in a luxurious and stylish villa, and naturally, the sour people became more and more natural. She became the official account of the public. Most importantly, he Yining found that many people came to see her clinic these two days, many of them even had some thoughts! "You''re the one, aren''t you?" A five month old pregnant woman smiled and said, "Dr. he, I heard that Huakang has a tonic that pregnant women can be very smart when they eat their children. Is it true? Can you help me get some..." He Yining had a headache and explained to her the intelligence of children, which had nothing to do with drugs. Moreover, every medicine has three poisons. I hope pregnant women can eat reasonably. "Doctor he, it''s like this. I just want to find Li Shao for something, but I can''t see anyone... So I can only hang up a number to find you." "..." why Ning was speechless and choked and shouted to the nurse to ask the person who took up medical time to leave. Finally, he was left with an angry word of "what thing". At the end of the day, why should I be so tired that I can''t say it, but I can''t cry or laugh. Why is there such a saying in the world that people are equal to each other? Just look at her now. It''s wrong that the door is not in charge, so it has become the target of public criticism. "What''s the matter?" Li Yunze looked at the angry he Yining and ate instant boiled mutton, just like eating whose meat. "You''re all right. What do you have to say about the villa and marriage?" Universally condemned, He Yining make complaints about it. "You don''t know, I''m all in the world now." Li Yunze smiled and scalded the dishes for he Yining. "The strategist has a cloud that the more dangerous it is, the safer it is. It''s hidden in the city..." "Hum!" He Yining snorted. "You see, the more exposed I am, the safer I am." Li Yunze begrudgingly opened a coke for he Yining. He Yining happily took over, and Li Yunze immediately turned his eyes. "He Yining, for a can of coke, do you think so?" "As for ah..." why do you rather pick your eyebrows? "I''m not angry. If you don''t coax me, you won''t give me another can of wine!" Li Yunze''s eyes penetrated the curling fog from the hot pot, and he Yining gradually became deep. She is the one who is so charming. So strong and do not want to show their own Yining, not Yining. "What''s the matter?" He Yining took a sip of coke and asked, "Why are you staring at me?" "I''m thinking..." Li Yunze pondered slightly. "You drink coke and eat so much this evening. You should get fat in a few days?" "..." why Ning twitched at the corners of his mouth and then clenched his teeth, "Li, Yun, Ze! How can you be like your daughter!" Li Yunze looked at the angry he Yining and smiled, "it''s all right. It''s better to be fat. I always feel a little chromium when I don''t do it." "Hum!" He Yining snorted and continued to eat and drink. "You said you were going to give me a diet list. I don''t eat fat, and you don''t have a chance to show." After a pause, he Yining suddenly laughed "Li Yunze, I suddenly thought of an idea to get rich!" "Huh?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "I can sell nutritious meal list later..." he Yining put down the coke and said with a look of business opportunities, "how many sisters want to lose weight safely now?! you can lose weight without hurting your body. The most important thing is that your name Li Yunze came out, and how many people flock to it..." "..." Li Yunze smiled, "are you stupid? No wonder it''s silly!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± "The nutritional menu should vary from person to person. Different people''s physique, body fat and other factors will be adjusted. What is useful to you does not mean that it is useful to others." Li Yunze shook his head, "thanks to you, you also study medicine." "I think you''re afraid of your reputation. Speaking of it, a diet list is useless. What else can you expect?" "..." Li Yunze choked and knew that he Yining, a woman with little thought, was disgusted with what he just said she would get fat. ¡­¡­ Meng Yi stands outside Li Yunze''s wedding villa, carrying an SLR camera and dressed like a paparazzi. Because it was winter, he wore a hat and scarf, only his eyes were outside, and others didn''t pay attention to whether he was walking with him. "Are you ready to install it here?" Meng Yi comes to a man. "I don''t think so. I guess I just ordered this house." "Oh!" Meng Yi looked around with sharp eyes. "I''ll go next door and see what I can''t get?" "Hey?" As soon as the man listened, his eyes lit up, "OK, together!" Meng Yi nodded, with a cold smile in his eyes, and walked with the man to the villa being renovated Chapter 1507 "Hello, I''m from Dacheng home decoration magazine. Let''s take a look at your decoration style and do a special topic on villa decoration." Meng Yi took out his business card. "It seems that you are the only villa being renovated recently." The other party took the business card and frowned. "Come so late?" "Well, you have to work during the day. I''m afraid the impact is one aspect," Meng Yi said in a fluent reply. "In addition, I can also capture several better angles when the personnel are away." After hearing this, the other party thought it was quite reasonable, "I can''t decide this. I want to ask our boss." "OK!" Meng Yi smiled and said, "we''ll wait here." The man looked at Meng Yi and the reporter who came with him. He turned around and took his mobile phone and called the boss of the decoration company to explain the situation. "OK, let me ask." The other party turned around and said, "our boss asked if you would put the name of our company in the magazine if you took it." "Yes, as long as the photos are selected, they must be put." Meng Yi said, "it''s possible to go to your decoration company to do a small project." As soon as the man heard it, he hurriedly told the boss. After a while, the man hung up and opened the door, "the boss said, shoot casually. If you don''t understand anything, you can also ask me. I''ll tell you about the decoration..." "Good!" Meng Yi thanked and walked in with the reporter. The reporter was a little excited and thought he was too lucky. What he followed was clearer than what he was outside. Just How can a magazine like Dacheng Jiezhuang become a paparazzi?! After thinking about it, the reporter gave up. For him who is excited at the moment, it doesn''t matter whether he decorates or not. Meng Yi and the reporter paid different attention, but they both took a few pictures outside first. Unfortunately, they all took more pictures in the direction of Li Yunze villa. Meng Yi and the decoration workers went into the villa and asked what to do while looking at the decoration style. "The owner of the house said that he was a nouveau riche..." the worker said, "he said that European style is rich at first sight, so he chose this decoration style..." Meng Yi listened to the workers make complaints about it, and finally became a Tucao. What do you say that the other party needs large furniture and atmosphere... So choose European style Fengyun. After Meng Yi looked around, he didn''t find anything in the house. "Excuse me." Meng Yi took back his eyes, nodded with the man, pulled his scarf and said, "Hey, it''s too cold without air conditioning and heating. I can''t stand it. You have to watch here." "I''m used to it. There''s an electric blanket when I go to bed." The man smiled and sent Meng Yi and the reporter away. After turning around and talking about the situation in the evening, the workers gradually converged and walked into the room. "First check whether there is Dacheng Jiezhuang magazine, and then see if there is Wang Xu..." the worker calmly ordered, "let people follow. Remember, no matter what happens, don''t be bothered and don''t be found." "Yes!" There was a reply on the phone. The man didn''t give him a good angle to see his face from beginning to end. First, it was normal that he didn''t take off his scarf because the room was cold. But every time he finds an angle to see his eyes, he can always avoid If such a person is not suspicious, how is it possible. Thinking, he dialed Xiao Jing''s number. "What?" Xiao Jing is having dinner. "Brother Jing, as you think, someone has come to explore the villa here." Xiao Jing was not surprised. If the other party really began to pay attention to the affairs of al Research Institute, he would naturally pay attention to Li Shao, "rest assured and boldly let them see." "Well, let me see. The other party should not find anything!" Xiao jingleng hissed, "those houses were used as underground casinos. If anyone can find anything, it''s insulting my IQ." "I let someone follow that man, but I don''t know if I can find anything." "Follow me," Xiao Jing said without hope. "If you can think of the villa next door, the other party is definitely not good. Besides, if you want to covet something, how can there be good people." After a pause, Xiao Jing continued, "I''m afraid he will doubt here again if he is found following." "I see." The worker replied, "I told you." "Well... The people who dug the channel have been in place in the past two days," Xiao Jing explained. "Although the other party has come to visit, we should also be careful and not relax our vigilance..." "I will." The worker answered and said a few words to Xiao Jing before hanging up. Xiao Jing put down his chopsticks and leaned back slowly on the chair. He looked out of the window at the traffic and sighed. Everyone thinks that rich families are good and have no financial burden, but how many people know that they often want the most peaceful life than anyone else. ¡­¡­ Meng Yi went back to the hotel. He deliberately left some footprints along the way to see if anyone was following him. But as a result, everything was calm and there was nothing wrong. Did he really think too much, or was he too careful?! Thinking, the mobile phone vibrated. Take it out. Meng Yi looks at the call and picks it up. "Jason, did you find something?" "Found it." Jason looked at the paper in his hand and said with a smile in his mouth, "Meng, you can''t imagine that the two pages here are connected with the two I''ve seen." "What do you mean?" Meng Yi suddenly raised his eyebrows. "I''m afraid Vivian hid it." Jason said. Meng Yi didn''t answer, and his eyes suddenly gathered If, at the beginning, why Yining took away not only the several pieces clamped by he Tianshu in the document, but also Qu Weiwei secretly hid two pieces in order to frame why Yining, who was misunderstood by Li Yunhao or Li Yunze. Just For so many years, Qu Weiwei still kept these two things, and even hid in such a circle. Meng Yi wants to go to prison and meet Qu Weiwei, but he knows that if he meets now, he will also be exposed. ¡­¡­ "Silly rather..." Li Yunze kissed he Yining, with some uneasiness in his voice. "Do you think I can finish the research left by big brother?" "Yes!" He Yining tightened his heart and said firmly, "because you are the best in my eyes." Li Yunze looked at why Ning''s eyes were deep It''s really his silly Ning. When it comes to big brother, she will feel guilty and sad, but she still has to support him. "I also think I can..." Li Yunze kissed he Yining and said in a hoarse voice, "because I have you by my side." Chapter 1508 He Yining looked at Li Yunze and knew that he was eliminating the panic and uneasiness in her heart. Gently fanned his eyes, why would he rather smile at the corners of his mouth and wonder if Everything is a misunderstanding, how good? "What''s the matter, huh?" Li Yunze asked, feeling why his mind was wandering. He Yining gently shook his head, hugged Li Yunze, buried his head in his neck and rubbed gently. Just like a kitten, he was looking for comfort and safe warmth. Li Yunze hugged he Yining, tore and rubbed the top of he Yining''s hair on his cheek, and said gently, "silly Ning, it will pass... Everything will be better." "Yes." Why should I rather answer the voice and dare not think about it. She was afraid of thinking, and her original happiness slipped away again. Li Yunze held her from he Yining''s back with her arms around her waist. He put his hands on his arms, stood in front of the balcony window and looked at the quiet night outside the community "The Chinese New Year is coming." Li Yunze''s eyes were deep. "When I think of the past Chinese new year, you always secretly ran to my house." "At that time, because you knew I would go to squat, you were not at home every time." He Yining is dissatisfied. Li Yunze smiled and kissed he Yining''s ear. Then he joked with a smile: "every time I''m not at home, don''t you still stay there?" "Li Yunze..." "Huh?" Li Yunze whispered softly. Why Ning Pian''s face? Looking at the handsome face close at hand, it seems that he knows even his pores. "Are you really not here?" Why would you rather pick your eyebrows. Li Yunze smiled and pecked at the corner of his mouth. He Yining snorted, "I knew..." Li Yunze pulled over he Yining, held her face and kissed her eyebrows and eyes carefully, "without those, where do we come from now? So, you have to thank me..." "Shameless... Well..." Why Ning''s angry words were swallowed by Li Yunze before he could export them. The sentimental kiss becomes particularly warm in the winter night, not only warming the body, but also warming the heart ¡­¡­ Yan Miao rubbed his swollen eyes. He was a little confused. After working for 36 hours and a major operation in the middle, the whole person was a little collapsed. When the mobile phone rang, yanmiao saw that it was Fang Zihan''s and picked it up, "are you back?" "Mi you!" Fang Zihan said bitterly, "I''m afraid I''ll spend the new year in the army this time..." "Ah?!" Yan Miao rolled his eyes. "Is your magazine going to turn into a military magazine?" "I''m so bored. I still want to go back and take advantage of Li Yunze!" Fang Zihan bastard not busy, "Pei Shengyao''s son of a bitch, not to make complaints about my sales contract, I really this is a big loss, and more and more deficit!" Yan Miao smiled, "OK, it''s not like you to abuse a single dog. Can you care for me?!" Fang Zihan glanced down and asked, "how are Yining and Li Yunze now?" "How to say? Now it can be described in three words..." yanmiao smiled more deeply, "sweet honey!" "Wow! That can''t be great!" Fang Zihan immediately forgot his troubles and why he was happy. "Li Yunze is very tired of working with Yining recently. He doesn''t work well in this class. In addition to the necessary surgery, he definitely leaves the hospital before he gets off work." Yan Miao said, "it''s to pick up Yining." As soon as Fang Zihan heard it, he was surprised, "is Li Yunze quite that!" "Well..." Yanmiao and Fang Zihan casually chatted about the current situation. When their best friends were together, they always seemed to have endless thoughts Fang Zihan leaned against the tree trunk, looked at the lights of the barracks in front and the sound of trumpets in the distance, and paused. "In other words, I heard a little gossip, and I don''t know what happened?" "Huh?" She changed her clothes and handed in the Bluetooth headset as early as possible.. "I heard of it, and I don''t know whether it''s true or not." Yan Miao frowned, "what on earth?" "It''s fangjishan, you know?" "That''s a common person in national news. Even if it''s not right, I know!" Yan Miao rolled over his eyes and said teasingly, "besides, you didn''t always say that you and he are a family!" "Yes, that''s him." Fang Zihan said, "it''s his granddaughter, Fang Xiran, the daughter of the commander of group a Army... I heard that she has a crush on Li Yunze. The two families will arrange a blind date when they go back this new year!" "..." Yan Miao twitched at the corner of his mouth, "fortunately!" "Ah?" Fang Zihan didn''t react for a moment. "Yining and Li Yunze have obtained the certificate. Although it is not made public, it is also protected by law." Yan Miao said with a smile, "besides, she likes Li Yunze, and Li Yunze has to like her." "Yes!" Fang Zihan nodded approvingly. "Moreover, no matter who her grandfather is or who her father is, how awesome... Can she force marriage?" Yanmiao went out, spoke to the people in the nurse station and left the hospital. After chatting for a while, they hung up. "One, two, three... Four!" Fang Zihan listened to the voice of the parade from a distance, sighed deeply, and turned around angrily and hugged the trunk. "Ah, I want to go back to Los Angeles, I want Yining, I want the heat, I want the heating of Los Angeles..." Fang Zihan''s petite body kept rubbing against the tree, and the whole person was a little bad. "What are you doing? The body can''t be satisfied. Rely on the tree to solve it?" The voice of ridicule came from behind, with shallow ridicule. Fang Zihan''s body stopped, holding the trunk and didn''t put it down, but his face had become ferocious and twisted in the dark. Turning around, Fang Zihan looked at Pei Shengyao fiercely and said with gnashing teeth: "yes, I like to face the trunk. It''s none of your business!" Pei Shengyao didn''t answer. He just looked at the strength of the tree and said, "what a capacity are you? No wonder I can''t satisfy you..." "..." Fang Zihan was stunned and didn''t respond to the meaning in Pei shengkey''s words. Waiting for her to think for a long time, when she reacted to what he said, her face turned red and became the color of pig liver. "Pei Shengyao -" Fang Zihan let go of the tree and shouted, "you dirty bastard!" "Well, right!" "Yes, you know you''re a dirty bastard!" Fang Zihan was so angry that his body trembled. Pei Shengyao, however, still looked calm and light, and said slowly, "I don''t know I''m a dirty embryo, I just know that it''s the right choice for you to put down the tree and choose me." When Fang Zihan twitched at the corner of his mouth, he raised his eyebrow and said, "after all, even if you can accommodate it, the bark is so rough... It will be bad." Pei Shengyao''s words meant something, which made Fang Zihan completely lose his temper. Who let her throw out a stem of cervical erosion and be caught by Pei shengkey?! Alas, I feel that this stem can play for a lifetime Chapter 1509 Jin shaosi sat alone under the grape trellis, and the moonlight fell on him, with a shadow of loneliness. There was the sound of footsteps stepping on the soil. Jin shaosi took back his empty thoughts and looked sideways. He saw Tan Zhonglang coming. "Every time you like to sit on her ridge, no matter what the weather is like before." Tan Zhonglang sat down. Jin shaosi didn''t answer, and his sight was again in the distance. Gradually, it became illusory. "In fact, you obviously have many opportunities to take her. Why hesitate?" Tan Zhonglang asked, "your current ability can give her a good life, and it is not impossible to replace Li Yunze in her heart." Jin shaosi still didn''t speak, but his eyes gradually gathered together with Mo Kong. "If I had your ability, I wouldn''t let Weiwei get to where she is today." Tan Zhonglang also looked ahead. "Since childhood, she felt that she was so excellent, but she was inferior everywhere because of her bad birth." Jin shaosi lowered his eyes and said, "Alan, people''s inferiority complex is given by themselves." After a pause, he looked at Tan Zhonglang. "You and my family are not sound. We also have inferiority complex, but our inferiority complex will become a driving force, and what about her?" Tan Zhonglang remained silent when asked by Jin shaosi. Jin shaosi looked back, "but she always made inappropriate actions to the things and people she thought would be superior to her." Because considering Tan Zhonglang''s mood, Jin shaosi''s words were gentle. But Tan Zhonglang understood the meaning of his words and sighed with self mockery. "Also, I''m aiyining. I also want to take her away. Even at this moment, I hope the relationship between her and Li Yunze is over!" Jin shaosi gradually narrowed his eyes. The originally charming peach blossom eyes became angry and cold. After a while, Jin shaosi sighed deeply and said, "but I just want to..." He is not willing to give in. What he has gained from ten years of success is to watch and guard silently. But he couldn''t resist it. He wanted to see Yining happy. The moonlight is hazy, and there are shallow clouds passing by, which dye the original bright light into illusion. In the vineyard, the bleak winter wind was clearly biting, but Jin shaosi and Tan Zhonglang sat there and lit a cigarette, just like when they were young, as if the years were still beautiful. ¡­¡­ The next day, the weather in Los Angeles was clear, making people feel that the pace of spring was coming Jian Mo and Shen Chu went to the construction site. J was bored, so he followed Gu Beichen to the emperor group and wanted to play in the information department. But after eating something in the lounge, Xiao Jing blocked it. When J saw Xiao Jing, he looked down with some dissatisfaction. "Don''t talk about anything. If you take me to eat, drink and have fun, you can consider it." "Longteng''s new limited edition fashion, men''s and women''s, this is the only set!" Xiao Jing throws out the bait directly. J''s eyes lit up immediately, but then he glanced back and said, "if I want to, I just need to throw in a few codes and I''ll get it. Do you need to give it to me?" "It won''t be released. Even if you throw your code into the game, can you get it?" Xiao Jing has a good time. "You knew there was no release? Who did you lie to?" J hummed, "except for Jane Mo, you all think I''m a child here, hum!" Xiao Jing smiled. "I won''t lie to you. I had a project negotiation with the people of Longteng game some time ago. I met brother Xiao''s second uncle, long Xialuo, the founder of Longteng game. He gave it to me." J''s eyes flickered, but he still looked at Xiao Jing with a touch of mind. "I heard from Qin Shao that you have a computer expert in five Xiao Li." J raised his eyebrow. "Why do you look for me if you don''t look for him?" "That''s not what I''m looking for later. Is it just you?" It''s nice to hear it, J. In this world, no one doesn''t like listening to praise. "Limited edition men''s and women''s sets, I also want a roaring Sky Sword with dragon''s full diamond blessing!" J carefully added conditions. Xiao Jing smiled secretly and nodded, "OK, I''ll take care of it." J is a computer genius, but no matter how talented, he is still a teenager with a child''s nature. "Come on, what''s up?" J looked like an uncle and proudly picked his chin. "There is a study to be carried out. I need two different firewalls." Xiao Jing saw J wrinkling his eyebrows and explained, "one set of firewall is to draw people''s attention, and the other is for just in case." Al Research Institute must set up a set of powerful firewall, so that people with thoughts secretly think that since the protection is so strict, it must be Li Yunhao''s research. In the villa, although the target is fixed in al Research Institute, we have to guard against people with more thoughts and find what! "Very important?" J asked. Xiao Jing nodded seriously, "so you have to do it. Xiaoqiang''s firewall can''t stand the attack of top hackers." J tilted his lips. "Two sets... I''m a little at a loss." Xiao Jing smiled, leaned forward slightly and whispered, "in fact, I gave you extra. You can ask Chen for what you want!" "Really?!" J immediately brightened his eyes and blurted out, "then I want Jane foam!" "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corner of his mouth, then patted J on the shoulder with a tense face and got up, "boy, you are really too young. Come on... I''ll take good care of you!" J twisted his eyebrows, and some couldn''t understand what Xiao Jing said. When he understood, it was many years later. Looking back at his years around Gu Beichen, he found that as a thick black student, Gu Beichen played very smoothly. Even Qin Shao had a headache. Gu Beichen only used the means of coaxing children every time, which made him pay a lot of efforts that could clearly exchange for great value! ¡­¡­ Li Yunze had an operation, looked at the time and called he Yining, "I''ll pick you up?" "No, I''ll go with my colleagues. Come here later." Why Ning Zhe''s mouth smiled and his eyes were full of sweet breath, "just bring the heat to me." "OK." Li Yunze answered softly and hung up the phone. "Li Shao, by the way!" Yanmiao came at the right time. Li Yunze asked with a smile, "can I say no?" "Yes!" Yanmiao joked, "then I''ll let Yining pick me up!" Then they looked at each other and smiled. They went to change their clothes and went to the most famous seafood cafeteria in Los Angeles. "Li Shao..." "Huh?" Li Yunze glanced at yanmiao. "Do you know Fang Xiran?" Yan Miao asked deliberately. Chapter 1510 "Fang Xiran?" Li Yunze subconsciously asked a question, and looked at yanmiao with a confused face, "who?" "...." yanmiao twitched at the corners of his mouth and turned his eyes. This family has made a promise to take a fancy to you. Both families are going to have a blind date. You look confused now. What the hell?! "Oh..." Li Yunze suddenly thought of something, "is it the granddaughter of political commissar Fang?" "Yes." Yan Miao nodded. "No, I know." Li Yunze said, "after the last operation of old Lin, she came to visit on behalf of the military region. In addition, there was ma Guangming and hospital leaders who came uninvited. The atmosphere is a little treacherous. Everyone thought they could let go of Hi, but they are a little restrained because of Ma Guangming''s arrival. "Is there any mistake that such a big Dean still rubs rice?" "It''s not a meal, it''s a relationship!" "Tell the truth..." "Thank you!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Listening to everyone''s complaints, he Yining said that she was also very helpless. "I''d like to know. How did the Dean know?" Someone asked. Everyone looked at each other and shook their heads. "We''ve been excited for two days. The Dean has many ears and eyes. It''s estimated that who listened to it when talking?" "It''s a buffet anyway. It''s good for everyone to stay away from the dean." Song Tianye said with a smile. "But we are here to see the great God of our medical field openly. Now we are surrounded by the dean and they can only step aside..." Song Tianye looks at he Yining and smiles. Yan Mian came up and hugged the shoulders of her shoulders and raised eyebrows. "I said brothers and sisters, what we want to make complaints about, we eat and carry on..." she smiled and looked at everyone, "well, after dinner, is the program even finished?" The crowd looked at yanmiao''s frowning and winking appearance, suddenly understood it, and said that there must be the next activity later. Why Yining couldn''t cry or laugh. He looked back at Li Yunze who was talking to Ma Guangming "Doctor he, no... you can''t be the master, can you?" Someone said deliberately, "then let''s ask Li Shao!" "Stir up the law!" Why would you rather turn your eyes, "well, let''s think about where to go while eating..." People are naturally happy when they are affirmed. Some play, but also close contact with Li Yunze, for these people in medicine, it is a great satisfaction and expectation. The seafood cafeteria is very large. The consumption here is completely related to the freshness and many ingredients here. But because it is in the form of self-service, it still attracts many diners even though it is expensive. On a table for two in the distance behind he Yining, Meng Yi and a man were also eating. "If you are so bold here, will you..." the person opposite asked. "They have checked me before and won''t think about me." Meng Yi said, "besides, when I come back this time, I use another name." The man looked back, "I can see why Ning and Li Yunze should be together..." "Therefore, Qu Weiwei is unwilling." Meng Yi took back his eyes and said, "it took so many years to destroy the relationship between Li Yunze and he Yining, and even let Li Yunze misunderstand he Yining''s bad character and malice... But the last two people made a big circle and were still together." The man smiled. "Women sometimes really don''t understand. Their hatred and anger are entirely because of themselves." "Without the envy of women, the world would be much more peaceful." Meng Yi snorted coldly and looked at the interaction between Li Yunze and he Yining from time to time. Some things are doomed. No matter how they are changed, there are always causes and consequences. If he is not mistaken, there were only two kinds of things The first is why Ning accidentally took Li Yunhao''s research manuscript. As for whether this "unintentional" was unintentional, it remains to be studied. No matter why Yining didn''t intend to take it away, Qu Weiwei finally hid two. In that way, even if why Yining found it and sent it back to Li Yunhao, there are still two missing. As for the other That''s why Yining didn''t intend to take it away. However, Qu Weiwei knew but didn''t remind her. She even hid two of them privately. When Li Yunze looked for them, in case he Yining''s hands really disappeared, she could put the two hidden ones there again, so that Li Yunze could know he Yining took them away, resulting in a deeper misunderstanding between the two people. Women''s jealousy can sometimes be terrible. It seems that an insignificant thing can achieve unexpected results due to the butterfly effect. But He likes Qu Weiwei''s jealousy. Otherwise, how can he develop in the future?! "What are you going to do next?" Asked the man opposite. "Zheng Hao, just keep an eye on the affairs of al Research Institute to see who has been recruited and whether there can be used by us." Meng Yi said. Zheng Hao nodded, "OK." Meng Yi slowly raised his eyes, just in time to see Li Yunze in the distance from everyone''s eyes, took he Yining''s hand and gently shook it. Then he Yining seemed to pinch the soft meat on his waist because of shyness. Li Yunze immediately bared his teeth. "Don''t you know that a man''s waist is sensitive? Be careful. If something goes wrong, you can''t cry!" He Yining grinned and whispered, "it''s okay, then I''ll transfer from obstetrics and gynecology to andrology..." Li Yunze immediately stared at him! Chapter 1511 Why should I rather see Li Yunze''s appearance of warning? While Xiao proudly left his mouth, his eyes bent into crescent moon because of his smile. "You dare!" Li Yunze squeezed out his teeth word by word. Go to andrology?! Do you show men there all day? Although they are doctors, many men are now gynecologists and obstetricians. As a doctor, he knows better that in their eyes, patients are patients, and there is no distinction between men and women. But Why would you rather go to andrology? No! "Li Shao, Dr. he... You''re giving us too much eye medicine for your open and loving eyes?" Someone joked, "this makes us single, or the other half is different from you. How do we live?" "Yes, yes..." Everyone began to joke, and he Yining was embarrassed. "You can make fun of me, but don''t make fun of my Yining. If she counts all the accounts on me later, I guess I have to sleep on the sofa." Li Yunze joked at random. When he said this, everyone joked enthusiastically. It was just food satisfaction and joy. "You eat well. I''ll accompany the leaders of your hospital so that they won''t make you indigestion." Li Yunze attached himself and kissed he Yining on the cheek. Regardless of everyone''s coaxing, he said, "wait, if you don''t have fun, we''ll continue in another place." "Oh..." The crowd sighed one after another. While Li Yunze left, they looked at he Yining. "Dr. he, if I remember correctly, you haven''t had time to tell Li Shao what we think?" He Yining smiled and shook his head. "Tut Tut, this is the so-called heart has a soul..." Someone paused and immediately said the second half of the sentence together, "... One point! Ha ha ha!" "Today you have become the target of ''attack''," yanmiao put the plate with fruit and cake in front of he Yining. "It''s hard for you to come to seafood self-help if you can''t eat seafood." "You chose it, and I don''t want to spoil the fun." He Yining said with a smile, "besides, it''s not only seafood, but also others." "Yes, I''d rather not eat seafood..." Shen Mingzhang whispered, looking at the happy people, "I''m so happy for you, I forgot." The people who were sent to the research institute by major hospitals knew why they were allergic to seafood. If Li Yunze hadn''t reacted quickly at that time, the consequences would be a little scary. "Yining, at that time, everyone said that you and Li Shao had known each other for a long time. It turned out to be true." Shen Mingzhang said with a smile, "I''m so happy for you." "Well, we knew each other when we were young, but there was some misunderstanding later..." "When the misunderstanding is solved, it will clear up after the rain." Shen Mingzhang raised his eyebrows. "I want to find a girlfriend when I see one by one in pairs." Then he looked at yanmiao, "doctor Yan, why don''t we make do with it." "Get out!" Yanmiao immediately glared at the domineering side leakage, "sister, I''d rather be deficient than excessive!" "You mean I belong to... Wanli?" Shen Mingzhang stared, "Hey, it''s all divine. Although Shuya can''t compare with Hua Kang, you''ve gone too far!" Yanmiao raised her eyebrows and looked arrogant and charming like, ''I''m superior to others. How can you drop me?''. "OK, you are cruel!" Shen Mingzhang sighed and shook his head, "only women and villains can''t be provoked!" "You mean I''m a villain?" "Yes!" "Shen Mingzhang, are you unhappy with your life..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± He Yining reluctantly withdrew from the battle circle with his plate. "You quarreled from the group to outside the group. If I didn''t know that you two really don''t have gravity, I would almost think you two are happy enemies." "Poof!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Yanmiao and Shen Mingzhang immediately choked on what he Yining said, glanced at each other and laughed. After the buffet, according to everyone''s wishes, they all went to heaven night. This kind of night show, which everyone can''t afford at ordinary times and has a great reputation in Los Angeles, was put forward and basically passed by all votes. Go to tangtangyi, Ma Guangming. No matter how thick skinned they are, they are embarrassed to follow. Meng Yi and Zheng Hao also left the cafeteria after watching the crowd leave. "Do you want to follow me?" Zheng Hao looked at the departing vehicle and asked. "No, it doesn''t make much sense." Meng Yi got on the bus. "I''m going back to the United States these two days. For the time being, you''ve followed closely. If there''s anything wrong, call me at the first time." Zheng Hao nodded, "OK." ¡­¡­ J sat on the sofa with his notebook in his arms, his fingers pounding on the keyboard. Jian Mo draws a design drawing on the dining table, while Gu Beichen holds a foreign video conference in his study. In such a big villa, although they are all devoted to their own work, the air is full of peace under peace. "Young lady, would you like some bird''s nest porridge?" Aunt Luo put the bird''s nest porridge beside Jane Mo, "it''s just time to have a rest." "OK, thank you, aunt Luo." Jane Mo answered with a smile. Aunt Luo took another cup of freshly squeezed juice and gave it to J. she saw that the game picture on his computer was not what he usually played at night. It was like a lot of small insects moving fast on the black one "Ouch, what are you doing? The computer is floating like a pile of mosaics..." J finger paused and looked at Aunt Luo silently. "It''s a symbol. Why can you see it as a mosaic?" "I don''t care what it is!" Aunt Luo sighed, "holding the computer all day, my eyes are not afraid to be damaged... Drink some juice to supplement vitamins." "Hum, I''m born with good eyes!" J tilted his lips proudly, but there was obvious joy in his eyes. He likes to be here because it tastes like home. He also likes to be talked about by Aunt Luo every day. He always feels very happy wait! What''s his quirk? I''ve been around Qin Shao for a long time. Do you like being abused! J hummed awkwardly, picked up the juice and began to drink. Aunt Luo looked at his proud appearance, smiled and shook her head, and went to make coffee for Gu Beichen "J, what are you doing as soon as you get back today?" Jane is curious. "I''m writing a firewall program. I don''t understand it when I tell you... You''re drawing your picture!" J put down the juice and continued to beat on the keyboard. Jane Mo thought that J was making the firewall for Gu Beichen''s company''s computer. She didn''t care much and continued to do their own things. Gu Beichen came out of the study, stood beside the railing on the second floor, looked down, crossed J and fell on Jian Mo, looking at her occasionally unknown frown, with a touch of worry on her carved face. The mobile phone vibrated slightly. Gu Beichen took back his sight, lowered his eyes and delimited the mobile phone. After reading the stuffed text message, he slightly twisted his eyebrows and turned around and entered the study. While closing the study door, he dialed Li Yunze''s phone Chapter 1512 Li Yunze took out his mobile phone and saw that it was Gu Beichen. He said something to he Yining. After going out to answer the phone, he left the box. "Beichen..." "There is news feedback. The other party has strong anti reconnaissance ability and doesn''t dare to follow." Gu Beichen stood in front of the study window with one hand and a pocket. Looking at the night light in the villa, Mo Tong said gradually, "it seems that what you are worried about has happened." Li Yunze was silent and said with a cold look: "this is the hard work of my eldest brother. Since my father wants to finish it, I also hope to get out my eldest brother''s contribution to medicine." "J''s firewall is being built. The firewall of al Research Institute will be difficult to break through. The other party should be able to attract attention." Gu Beichen was silent. "Yunze, I''m afraid it will be very difficult to get finished products and apply for international patents." No matter how careful you are, you can''t hold so many thieves. Gu Beichen and Li Yunze understand this. "Then don''t do it?" Li Yunze drooped his eyes and said astringently, "this research will enable many patients to afford medicine and reduce their pain to the greatest extent. No matter how difficult it is, it is also my brother''s dream. I have to do it." Gu Beichen''s eyes are deep. Everyone has their persistence. Li Yunhao''s death has hit Yunze too hard. Now this matter has become his persistence. "Now you and Yining must be able to disturb each other''s sight. At least when you have dinner today, several waves of people are watching..." Gu Beichen said slowly, "fortunately, you noticed it early and were prepared." Li Yunze leaned lazily against the wall, his eyes fell in front of him, and slowly opened his mouth: "whether it''s for big brother or the things between me and Yining, maybe sometimes, if you care, you''ll take it seriously." Gu Beichen didn''t answer. After a while, he said, "you''re right. No matter what, you should always try... Don''t learn from me. You''ve wasted so many years with mo''ersheng." "Me?" Li Yunze lowered his eyes and laughed at himself, "speaking, I waste more than you." Beichen will smile. Yining adhered to Yunze since childhood. They can be said to be childhood sweethearts, but they were tied together after such a big circle. "The villa is going to enter large instruments these two days. Xiao Jing will stare at it. You don''t have to worry about it." Gu Beichen said. "It''s brother. Thank you." Li Yunze said slowly, "there are some things you don''t say. I know that you have Gu Beichen in this life. I just want to say it''s worth it." "Don''t worry. Do it according to your ideas. Just focus on research and Yining. I''ll arrange Xiao Jing and them to do the rest." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil became deep. After talking to Li Yunze, he hung up the phone. His hands were not clean after entering the ink palace. When he solved Jian Heng himself, his heart was cold When his heart is warm and conscious, he can only face Mo''er, Xiaojie, his family and brothers and friends like Yunze. "Dong Dong!" The knock on the door interrupted Gu Beichen''s thoughts, and he answered faintly. Aunt Luo pushed the door and came in with a glass of milk. "I just made coffee for you. When Mrs. young saw it, she changed it into milk. She said that you were drinking coffee at night. Aren''t you going to sleep with her?" As she spoke, aunt Luo smiled at the corners of her mouth. Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and smiled, "OK!" "Alas, in the past, I advised you not to drink coffee at night many times, and you gave me a cold face." Aunt Luo stared discontentedly, "now, it''s very clever." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were deep. "Isn''t that because of strict wife control?" "Well, a henpecked man has a future." Aunt Luo joked and turned out of the study. Gu Beichen sat down in a chair and drank a mouthful of milk. His eyes fell on a "family photo" on the table. A picture of Xiao Yan''s family in Mo''er''s belly After taking the photo, Gu Beichen gently stroked Jian Mo''s swollen stomach with his fingers, and the ink pupil became as deep as the sea. "Xiao Yan, mom is unhappy now. You say... Can I let her put you down and be happy?" The faint voice showed the hurt of forbearance and did so much. Finally, when Xiao Yan was about to give birth, he left them. Don''t say Mo''er can''t stand it, isn''t he?! Gu Beichen sighed gently, put down the photo frame and looked at the data on the computer screen. I don''t know why Shi Shaoqin didn''t care about Yunze this time? Although he couldn''t figure it out, Gu Beichen was also secretly happy. As long as the equipment is brought in smoothly, even if Shi Shaoqin suddenly pays attention to the research, it will not be so easy to find anything?! ¡­¡­ Everyone didn''t leave until the early morning, because they were all medical staff. Many "Shen Mingzhang, take me a ride." After yanmiao shouted, he looked at Li Yunze and he Yining and said, "look where I can find a friend like me? In order to give you a moment of spring curfew earlier..." "..." he Yining immediately hit her arm angrily, "get out!" "OK, little one, get out now!" Yanmiao blinked and went to Shen Mingzhang. Li Yunze gently hugged he Yining, looked at yanmiao''s back and asked, "do you think Yanyan and Shen Mingzhang have a play?" He Yining shook his head. "I hope they have some, but Shen Mingzhang is not a hot dish." She sighed, "Yan Yan has a strong personality. She wants to find a strong one. In fact, she needs a little man." "Become a love expert?" Li Yunze laughed and joked. "That''s what I haven''t studied after chasing you for so many years?" Why would you rather pick your eyebrows. Li Yunze smiled and shook his head. He put down his hand holding he Yining''s shoulder and turned around holding her hand. "Go back... Anyway, you''ll have a rest tomorrow morning." "OK." He Yining answered with a smile. She likes to walk hand in hand with Li Yunze. "What are your wishes for the new year?" Li Yunze asked. He Yining gently fanned his eyes, "originally I wanted to have you, one by one..." Li Yunze looked sideways at he Yining, "what about now?" "I hope everything goes well and I can calmly study brother Yunhao." Why did Ning zhe stop at the corner of his mouth and look at Li Yunze, "Li Yunze, you also want to have a family reunion, but now you know that you can''t, right?" Chapter 1513 Li Yunze''s eyes on why Yining was on the top. At this moment, his heart was moved. He Yining gently pulled into his arms. Li Yunze held her tightly in the street late at night, "silly Ning, thank you for your understanding and for forgiving my selfishness and incompetence." Li Yunze sighed, "I''m not a qualified lover. I''m still looking for a way to make you happy all the time... I''m not a qualified father. I can celebrate the new year together, but I don''t surprise you one by one." "No," he Ning circled Li Yunze''s waist and smiled, "you may not be qualified, but you will be the pride of me and one by one." Yu Gong, brother Yunhao''s research results will benefit many people In private, isn''t she selfish? The most important thing now is that they can''t let the people staring at them know one by one. She will also be afraid that one million secret and one sparse will still be known and studied by interested people. Will it hurt one by one. "Anyway, in your eyes, everything is right and good..." Li Yunze said with a smile. He Yining snorted, "yes!" "Silly rather......" Li Yunze spoiled and said, let go of he Yining, kissed her on her cold forehead, "go back by car!" "Didn''t you say you wanted to go?" Why would you rather pick your eyebrows. "But I can''t wait!" Li Yunze said deliberately. Why Ning''s face turned red, "hooligan!" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows and looked like ''I''m a hooligan and I''m reasonable''. He Yining took him to take a taxi. The temperature came from the hands of Xiangshou. Why would you rather know that Li Yunze didn''t want her to blow in the cold wind for too long... However, she wanted to satisfy her little girl''s mind. After the party, lovers will walk hand in hand in the street at night ¡­¡­ All things are going on quietly. There is no need for the parties to build momentum on the surface, and there has never been any slack in the secret deployment because of the surface. While al Research Institute is recruiting researchers, the hard decoration of the villa where Li Yunze and he Yining are going to get married has also ended. In the twinkling of an eye, winter goes and spring comes, and the new year comes as scheduled. After a long holiday, I have to go to work as scheduled. Just after the new year, two days after the decoration of Li Yunze''s villa, a big news broke out in Los Angeles for the whole city. All along, although Jian Mo''s father Jian Zhanfeng''s death is related to the emperor group, there is no real hammer. This matter has become a chat after dinner. As for Jian Mo, Gu Beichen asked her if she believed him. Didn''t he do it? Jane moxin! And since she chose to believe, she would not bother others. But this time, the video of the events of that year broke out directly on the network Although Jian Zhanfeng''s death has nothing to do with emperor group and Gu Beichen, it has nothing to do with Gu Beichen''s mother Cen Lanxi. Public relations can''t be suppressed even if it''s urgent. At the moment, Gu Beichen is the most worried about such a thing. Not only is it related to her mother, but also Jane Mo is now treating depression. He was afraid that under depression, such things would completely crush Jane mo. Li Yunze, as a doctor, said the words of reason: the current situation is a dilemma, which may be very bad results, or it may be able to persist with Jian Mo''s love for Gu Beichen. As a woman, Li Jinxi is obviously perceptual: Women''s bearing capacity is often greater than men think. At least, it was found that Chen Yu''s family had a miscarriage. For so long, she continued even though she was in pain. Finally, Gu Beichen asks Jian Mo whether to face it together. Jian Mo finally confesses his depression with Gu Beichen Between husband and wife, there are always some things that need to be faced together, even if they are painful, don''t they?! ¡­¡­ The night in Los Angeles is filled with faint sadness, while the morning in New York seems to be full of hope. Last night, the second phase of the drug has been injected into star. If there is no rejection this time, star''s body will be greatly improved and he is more likely to wake up. Meno has been taking care of him in the temperature controlled sterile ward. Xi Cheng dared not go far and dozed outside. If Shi Shaoqin hadn''t stood in front of the window without sleeping, it is estimated that he could at least lie down and sleep for a while The current situation is that Qin Shao is awake and waiting. He is trembling when he takes a nap. He is afraid that if there is something wrong with star, he will really be buried by Qin Shao. "Oh" suddenly came. Xi Cheng was dreaming. He only felt that his body was tilted by some external force. Before he was awake, his body had fallen to the ground. "What''s the matter? What''s the matter?" Xi Cheng suddenly opened his eyes, "is there something wrong with star?" "If something goes wrong with him, can you still talk here?" There was a sound overhead. The flat voice without tone clearly has no emotion, but it can fall in Xi Cheng''s ears, but it seems to convey the cold smell of death in hell. Although, he doesn''t know what the cold in hell is like. He quickly got up, Xi Cheng looked at the time, rubbed his eyes and said, "Qin Shao, I just saw it an hour ago, temporarily..." Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, so he looked at Xi Cheng. Xi Cheng swallowed it secretly, swallowed the words behind him, and said, "I''ll go in and have a look again". He had a sneaky stomach and went to see star. When it was completely confirmed that star''s condition was stable and did not reject the second drug injection, Xi Cheng could not help but lay down his heart and said "fortunately"! Shi Shaoqin stood next to the incubator, his beautiful lips gently closed. If you don''t know, just look at his beautiful face and the tenderness you don''t know when you look at star, you won''t know how many people''s lives are controlled by this person and how many people''s blood are in his hands. Raise your hand. The slender jade like fingers are white and powerful, and there is no roughness on the surface. Shi Shaoqin gently "touched" star''s small face across the incubator, looked at his "deep sleep", and flashed the collapse of Jian Mo in his mind Suddenly, frowned! Shi Shaoqin subconsciously withdrew his hand on star''s "face", curled up slightly and sighed secretly. "I didn''t tell Mo''er that you still have a breath," Shi Shaoqin''s calm vision gradually deepened. "I''m worried that she has hope for you, and what she finally gets is disappointment... Will you blame me?" The soft voice shows a touch of softness that should not belong to him, but has been forgotten for too long. Shi Shaoqin looked at star''s small face, which was only half the size of a slap, and smiled at the corners of his mouth That kind of smile surprised the years, but in the years to come, it softened star! Chapter 1514 He Yining didn''t go to the clinic today and didn''t arrange surgery for her. She had nothing to do. She began to read some books on pharmacy. Just because of Jane Mo''s father''s video, she was a little absent-minded. I don''t know whether Li Yunze and Gu Beichen are brothers from childhood. Does it need brothers to try such a heavy event? He Yining weakly fanned his eyes, stared at the ingredients of Chinese herbal medicine on the page, and gradually became lax "Dr. he," Dr. Liu came in, "you just transferred from surgery to obstetrics and Gynecology, and you''re going to the pharmacy?" "Huh?" Why should Ning suddenly return to his mind, look at Dr. Liu and the medicine book, and smile, "I just want to enrich myself." "If you have a medically powerful husband, you can become diligent." Dr. Liu sighed, "if you don''t understand anything, you won''t, and someone will give you advice... Unlike me, if you want to continue your further study, you have to leave without pay for further study. My man is not happy." Listening to Dr. Liu''s nagging about the family''s shortcomings, why would you rather ask with a smile: "you complain so much about your brother-in-law, don''t you see that you go to the supermarket to buy vegetables and cook every time you get off work!" "See through but don''t tell. You''ll know when you get married with Li Shao." Dr. Liu said with a smile, "it''s necessary to complain when you''re married, but you still have to live... It''s impossible for two people without friction, but if the husband and wife know how to understand each other, there''s nothing they can''t live with." "Dr. he, Li Shao, although you have good conditions in all aspects, you are not bad. When you get married, you can''t always let him..." Dr. Liu sat down opposite. "Man, you can''t be used to it. When you get used to it, you will naturally enjoy it. When you get used to it, he will think you are heinous." "Experience?" He Yining asked. "Yes!" Why Ning zhe smiled and nodded, "I''ll ask you more about the way to control the husband..." He Yining and Li Yunze entered the villa hand in hand and said what Doctor Liu taught her today. At the end, she laughed herself. "You should tell her directly that you don''t need it at all, because I stick to you!" Li Yunze said indifferently. "I''m afraid she can''t stand it." Why would you rather curl your mouth. Li Yunze stopped, looked at he Yining and didn''t speak. He Yining was looked at for a while, and some were looked at fluffy, "why, what''s the matter?" "He Yining, I find that you are getting more and more..." Li Yunze pretended to meditate, as if it was not easy to find a suitable word and said, "well, more and more thick skinned." He Yining was stunned at first, then stamped his foot, "Li Yunze!" Then she made the posture she wanted to play, and Li Yunze ran inside, taking advantage of her words. He Yining was in a hurry, but his physical strength and endurance could not compare with Li Yunze. Finally, he could only gasp and say, "Li Yunze, it''s not too late for a gentleman to avenge ten years!" "Wait until you are a gentleman..." "Ah!" He Yining hasn''t reacted yet. He has been taken by Li Yunze. Two people in the warm spring sun want to look at each other like this, such a smile, such deep feelings After looking at each other for a while, it seemed that the posture was a little stiff. Why did Ning hesitate to ask, "how are Beichen and Momo?" Li Yunze let go of he Yining and took her hand and walked forward. He sighed and said slowly, "Jane is depressed. Now that something like this happens, I can only hope that she loves Beichen and can override everything." He Yining was silent. "It''s not their own problem. I believe foam can." "And you?" Li Yunze looked at he Yining. "It''s not your problem, can you?" Why should Ning''s heart tighten suddenly? When Li Yunze sighed again, she asked, "Li Yunze, what if it was my problem? What would you do?" Li Yunze didn''t answer immediately, but meditated and didn''t perfunctory, "I don''t know..." paused, "besides, don''t ask if, because there is no if!" Why would you rather pull the corners of your mouth than continue to talk about it. After entering the villa, the two people turned around. Now they have basically been decorated, waiting for the two people to choose furniture and other things. "Are all the equipment in place?" He Yining asked. Li Yunze nodded, "take you in and have a look." "OK." Why should I answer. During the decoration period, two people occasionally came back to see the progress. Now it''s no surprise to come back. He Yining was surprised when he saw the mysterious underground research room "How could Beichen be the basement of a villa? It''s really spacious here." He Yining looked at such a big place and the instruments in place and kept praising. Li Yunze didn''t tell her that it was to open a casino. He thought it was Gu Beichen''s business. He Yining knew it. Although he wouldn''t say it, he didn''t want her to add other ideas. "Will there be no problem with these devices coming in?" He Yining asked. "Basically, they came in from the next door. There were large pieces of furniture. The owner tossed several times because he was not satisfied with the customized furniture..." Li Yunze said with a smile. He Yining also smiled and knew that the so-called "tossing" was actually to cover up these devices. "The day after tomorrow," Li Yunze came forward and gently took her into his arms from behind. "Yining, we''re going to live together in marriage." Li Yunze''s words were murky and soft, as if he were inviting and trying to make progress. He Yining felt something changed and blushed. His body struggled to push away Li Yunze. Unfortunately, without success, it completely caused greater changes in Li Yunze... The two people lived the life that "cohabitation" should have in advance in the rest area of the research room. Harmonious variations can always add fragrance to tea. "Because we have to study, we will contact with drugs all day... Our two, two, three and three will come late." Li Yunze kissed he Yining and said. Why Ning hung his eyes shyly, "how many children are you going to have?" Li Yunze hugged he Yining. "Two to three. It''s too much. You work hard, too little. I don''t think it''s lively enough." Why Ning zhe smiled and nodded, "it seems that you need to keep your energy and prepare for war in the future." "It''s all right. I have enough to explain every day..." Yili is upgraded in the underground research room where only cold instruments are placed. Outside, someone is looking at the villa with glasses not far away "Is someone in?" "I''ve been inside for more than half an hour and haven''t seen it." "I''ll go in and have a look!" "Would it be too risky?" "It''s all right. I''m a little worried. They''re inside, but the defense line won''t be so tight..." Chapter 1515 After the man finished, he looked at the villa in front of him and then looked around, "you continue to monitor. What''s wrong, tell me." "Good!" The man got up and left and went to the nearby villa first. He doesn''t know what''s going on nearby, but learning to pretend is the most basic thing for them. Recently, he has explored the nearby terrain. He already knows where to enter Li Yunze''s villa. Soon, the man entered the villa from a hidden place, carefully looked at the circle, and determined that there was no additional camera except the cameras placed during the construction of the villa, so he avoided the camera and lurked close to the main body of the villa In the quiet space, there is a strange smell. Men''s sensitive vision is scanning up and down, left and right, just like a detector. There is no human breath in the air. I don''t know whether it is because of the new house or because I didn''t start to enter the soft clothes. There is always an empty breath, which makes people feel that it is because there is no one or because it is too cold. The man slightly twisted his eyebrows and glanced around with his eyes. Then his eyes fell on the stairs to the second floor, wondering whether to go upstairs and have a look. He had a feeling that Li Yunze and he Yining didn''t seem to be in the room! This feeling is very strong, which makes him feel very strange Why do you think you''re not in the house when you come in and don''t go out? Suddenly When the man heard the sound, he quickly hid in the dressing room next to him and heard a sound from outside. "There are too many things in Al recently. I''m afraid the wedding will have to be delayed first. I don''t want to marry you casually. Yining, do you want to live with me first..." Li Yunze said in an ambiguous voice from the outside, "I''m not satisfied just now!" Why Ning''s face turned red, and his eyes looked at Li Yunze. In his watery eyes, there was a tender anger, "Li Yunze, you can''t talk well!" "I have said well, but I am not satisfied..." Li Yunze rubbed his body, "look!" Why Ning''s face became more red. She was actually very happy about Li Yunze''s shameless face, because it was for her alone. "They haven''t been decorated well. Are you going to be the same as just now..." why is Ning shy and completely ashamed to export, "the same..." "Like what?" Li Yunze asked badly. "The same against the wall?" He Yining seemed to be annoyed by Li Yunze''s flirtation, and his voice was ashamed and angry. Li Yunze smiled, kissed why Yining and said, "silly Ning..." paused, "as long as you agree to live with me now, all the furniture can come in today." In this world, there are few things that money can''t do. "Who wants to live with you..." why Ning snorted, pushed Li Yunze away, looked around and said, "this design is good!" Paused, "last time I came to see it, I thought it was just very good. I didn''t expect it to be so amazing when it came out as a whole." "If the design of emperor''s banner is not good, then who wants the expensive house?" Make complaints about Li Yunze''s "Tucao", "I thought about letting Jane foam design, but Beichen''s wife slave, said what do not want Jane too tired, and simply refused." "I remember Beichen also studied design?" He Yining suddenly remembered. "Yes." Li Yunze nodded. "However, the first house he designed was for Shen Chu, and then he didn''t touch it." "What a pity..." "I said that day that you were afraid of Jianmo fatigue. If you designed it, he would be good..." Li Yunze rolled his eyes directly. "Give me a directly. His design is only for Jianmo." "That''s not the first room for Shen Chu!" Why do we make complaints about Tucao? Li Yunze was a little helpless, "however, Jian Mo lived in." "..." why did Ning twitch at the corners of his mouth, a little surprised. "The house in lanzeyuan was designed for Shen Chu at the beginning, but Jian Mo lived in it from beginning to end." Li Yunze pulled he Yining''s hand and walked out, "so ah, sometimes life should be yours, but you can''t escape. It shouldn''t be yours, and it''s no use forcing." Li Yunze is talking about Jian Mo and Shen Chu, but why is Ning suddenly nervous. She doesn''t know... Whether Li Yunze should have something in her life or not! Li Yunze and he Yining left the villa. From beginning to end, they didn''t find that an outsider had sneaked into the villa. The man waited for a while before opening the door of the dressing room. After listening carefully for a while, he determined that Li Yunze and he Yining had left before he went out. The man closed the window and looked at it slightly After determining why Li Yunze and Ning really left, the man put down his heart and began to "visit" the villa. From downstairs to upstairs, every room, men look very carefully. When he didn''t find anything, the man locked his eyebrows and looked disappointed. "Am I really thinking too much?" While the man whispered, he looked left and right. He still didn''t give up and "visited" again. In the end, there is nothing strange about this villa. It is just a luxury villa with high-end decoration style and will not make people feel local tyrants. Compared with the one next to it, it simply explains why upstarts and rich families have the same money, status and taste. The man left the villa disappointed and returned to the surveillance office. "He Yining and Li Yunze left..." the watchman asked, "did you find anything?" The man shook his head, looked at Li Yunze''s villa and sighed, "there''s no need to follow here. It''s a waste of time." Paused, "have you negotiated the price of the hacker?" The monitor nodded. "It''s basically settled. As long as al Research Institute starts a special project, it will start to conquer." "Well, let''s go!" The man said, subconsciously looked at the villa and turned away. Just a few minutes after the man and the monitor left the villa, Xiao Jing got a reply. "Brother Jing, all the people in the dark have been removed." "Yes." Xiao Jing answered and said, "you just live a normal life. Don''t let people see the clue..." after a pause, he joked, "upstart, quarrel with his wife and drop something from time to time." "Hey, hey, understand, you need to enter the materials!" "You''re smart..." Xiao Jing hung up the phone after explaining a few more words and dialed Li Yunze. "The alarm of the villa is temporarily eliminated. Fine materials follow the soft decoration in the past two days. If there is no accident... The project can be started next week!" Chapter 1516 "Yes." Li Yunze answered and hung up without saying anything more. At that time, he had just finished the first round with Yining. He wanted to continue, so he received a call Someone sneaked into the villa. He and Yining didn''t come out until people entered the villa. They played a play, although it''s not a play That person will naturally feel that they don''t know his existence when they hide and listen, so the interaction between him and Yining is more persuasive. After all, in the villa, except for him and Yining, who do you play for?! Leave deliberately to give the man enough time to check the villa. Only when he checks, can he rest assured there Beichen was going to turn it into an underground casino. In this country where gambling is illegal, if people can find the secret door casually, how is it possible? That''s why he dared to let the man check it! Even if it is found, the big deal is that the project will run aground. I''d rather not let the finished products come out than let the intentional people take them and turn the things that originally saved people into harm. This is not only against their principle of being a doctor in the Li family, but also makes the big brother''s death unworthy! After hanging up, Li Yunze was obviously in a good mood. "We''ll live together next week!" Li Yunze announced. Why rather turn over your eyes, "it''s like there''s no cohabitation now!" Li Yunze looked sideways at why he Ning, and immediately smiled, "it''s also..." Looking back at the front, Li Yunze sighed, "although living in a big house, personal welfare has been reduced." Why Ning Bai gave Li Yunze a look, "men are lower body animals." "That''s because men shoulder the future of the motherland..." Li Yunze raised his eyebrow. "Ha ha!" "Make complaints about the future of the motherland," He Yining said, after squeezing two words in his teeth. "Isn''t it?" Li Yunze said brazenly, "after all, the generation after generation brought out by our lower body are all elites!" "..." why did Ning yank out of control? She couldn''t refute Li Yunze''s shameless statement. You can''t say that one by one is not an elite?! "You won..." why would you rather hum. Li Yunze raised his hand and touched he Yining''s face. "Well, I mainly win you in order to contribute to the next generation of the motherland!" Sweet words come suddenly, but they make people feel sweet. Because of this, he Yining seems to have gradually forgotten his hesitation, and he doesn''t seem to remember that there is still a barrier to cross between each other. No matter when the snowstorm comes, the warm sunshine at the moment is the most important, isn''t it? Escape or face, death... Sometimes it''s not so terrible! At least, in the beauty of the moment, she would rather have a moment of joy for pieces ¡­¡­ "Commissar, if it''s all right, I''ll go back first." Wang Qiyuan, Fang Jishan''s private secretary, said. Fang Jishan nodded, "go and be busy." With that, the man got out of the car and entered the courtyard and small foreign building. As soon as I entered the room, I heard a voice from the kitchen. It can be seen that my wife and servants are outside, looking at my wife with eyebrows and a smile. Mrs. Fang nodded with a smile. "Xiao Xi is busy inside. She said you like her round lotus seed soup and must make it yourself." "I think she didn''t come back for the new year. It''s an apology!" Fang Jishan said with a smile. Mrs. Fang smiled. "Anyway, there''s nothing you can do to get angry with your granddaughter." With this, Fang Xiran came out of the kitchen "Grandpa, are you back?!" Fang Xiran put a small bowl of round lotus seed soup in front of Fang Jiong mountain, immediately rubbed it up, took his arm and began to say coquettishly, "do you know that when I come back today, any meetings have been pushed away?" "Hum, can I delay the affairs of the country for you?" Fang Jishan snorted coldly on purpose. "So, today is just right!" Fang Xiran''s posture as a little girl at the moment is completely different from that of being capable in the army on peacetime days. Fang Jishan looked at old lady Fang. They looked at each other and immediately laughed. This is the only girl in the Fang family''s grandchildren, and the rest are men. Fang Xi naturally became everyone''s baby pimple. However, the little princess was born in a military and political family, and her temperament was also tough when she was raised in the courtyard since childhood. As a result, Fang Jishan wanted to put her baby granddaughter next to her, and finally ran to the army early. The family chatted and ate happily, and the sky became a little gray in the twinkling of an eye. "Xiao Xi, are you going to meet the boy of the Li family when you come back for a few days this time?" Fang Jishan has heard his son Fang Qitian say that he wants Xiaoxi to go with Li Yunze. "Last time I saw Lin during the operation, I was very satisfied." Fang Xi ran said with an eyebrow. She is a person who will ask for it when she likes it, and there is nothing to be shy about. "Well, I''m very satisfied!" Fang Jishan said with a smile, "I''m not sure people are not satisfied with you!" "I''m beautiful and progressive. What''s his dissatisfaction?" Fang Xi ran raised his eyebrows. "Besides, there''s no problem with matching families." For his granddaughter''s consistent self-confidence, Fang Jishan smiled. "The Li family wants to start a big plan for medical research. I pay attention here. Do you want grandpa to meet Li Yunze''s father in person?" "What''s the age now? Do you still want the older generation to date the next generation?" Fang Xiran shook his head. "I''ll go to find Li Yunze myself..." he paused. "So, Grandpa, don''t blame me for not staying at home with you this time. After all, I''m going to cheat a grandson-in-law for you." "Just you clever ghost!" Fang Shan Tucao sound, suddenly make complaints about a room. The leaders who have seen the Bagua mountain at the moment are those who have not seen the Bagua mountain and the nature. Fang Xiran, who had just returned from the army and devoted herself to flattering Fang Jiong mountain, didn''t know at all. However, in a few months, her favorite "prey" had been caught and run away by other hunters. ¡­¡­ Night, as scheduled. Although it is dark, for many families, it means that they can finally rest and feel the happiness under the warmth. Li Yunze took he Yining''s hand and walked along the river of Los Angeles. It''s spring. Although it''s still chilly at night, it won''t feel very cold. "I didn''t expect Beichen to set off fireworks." He Yining sighed, but in his voice, he could not hide his envy. "Well," Li Yunze didn''t hear what he was thinking in his words, "I was proposing to get divorced that time, but I finally put it alone by the river... But it''s a coincidence that Jian Mo was on the bridge that day." Why should Ning hang his eyes in silence and feel that things in the world are so coincidental. Coincidentally, people feel that people who love each other can be connected together. Suddenly Chapter 1517 "Bang!" "Pop..." "Wow..." The sound of fireworks exploding into the sky came. Why Ning subconsciously raised his eyes and stopped and looked at the fireworks exploding on the ink sky. They were colorful and disappeared gradually after spreading with their tails. At the moment of disappearing, then, fireworks burst into the air again. Colorful and umbrellas shrouded the head, rendering the ink space gorgeous and bright. "Wow... Look, look, I don''t know who is setting off fireworks. It''s so beautiful!" "So many. It''s a big deal again. I don''t know who it is this time?" "It''s so beautiful..." Exclamation and admiration came from all around. Everyone stopped and enjoyed the brilliance of this moment. Under the supervision of urban fireworks, there is only one place along the Los Angeles River where fireworks can be set off for everyone to have fun. Here, it has also become a place for many people to express romance. Walking hand in hand along the river of Los Angeles is obviously very vulgar, but the fireworks that still make women yearn for in their hearts can always illuminate their hearts most directly He Yining forgot his reaction and just looked up at the fireworks blooming in different shapes in the air, as if to tell her that life is full of all kinds and is about to begin. "How beautiful..." he Yining sighed. His nose had begun to be sour, and his eyes were filled with a thin layer of water mist, which was twinkled into various colors by the fireworks. He Yining looked at the fireworks and Li Yunze looked at her. It turned out that seeing the person you love moved him, he would be happy. Yining, you have done a lot for me, but I have done too little for you Although there is one thing between us, you can bury her in your heart with me, so can I! Kiss, suddenly but without accident. Just as the fireworks dimmed and sighed that he hadn''t seen enough, Li Yunze held he Yining''s face and gently kissed her cool lips This is a kiss of almost worship, full of the blessings of lovers for the future. "Yining, who is naturally superior, sometimes makes me forget the beauty of ordinary." Li Yunze held why Ning spoke slowly, "but what you can do, I don''t want you to enjoy less than others." "I''m very happy..." he Yining said, "Li Yunze, I''m really happy. I never knew that a fireworks would make me happy and at a loss." He Yining looked up and kissed Li Yunze''s neck. "Thank you for letting me realize my dream of you in every green years." Li Yunze, I am really satisfied at this moment, and even feel... I am willing to die at the next moment! But even so, I am more greedy. I want to be by your side for a long time, always by your side, until the old moment. I don''t want our beauty to be too short. For a short time, I don''t know how to face it ¡­¡­ Al Research Institute was officially launched, ahead of Li Yunze and he Yining moving into the villa. All the students from the major medical schools selected into the Institute and some senior pharmacists dug up were present on the day of opening. The media of all parties reported the event at large, and the news of Los Angeles these two days seemed to be contracted by Li Yunze and Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen may have killed Jian Mo''s father Jian Zhanfeng because of his mother Cen Lanxi. In order to restore the truth as soon as possible, he made a deal with XK on his own terms. In this world, no matter how difficult intelligence is, it seems that XK can''t get it without it. If XK can''t investigate, it''s possible that there will never be a way to restore the truth. However, if you want XK information, you can''t have money. Often the conditions they put forward are unexpected. For example, Xiao Mu, the leader of XK now, has a crush on Gu Beichen to take over XK. But Gu Beichen has his own responsibility. He hasn''t promised all the time. This time, he completely threw away his own responsibility in order to let Jian Mo put down his heart knot. Of course, at this moment, neither Gu Beichen nor Xiao Mu thought that a Jian Mo let Gu Beichen still fail to go to XK But where is there a free lunch? I''ll pay it back sooner or later. Jian Mo makes Gu Beichen never go to XK in the end. Xiao Mu can only make an idea on their children in the end, which also creates another legend. Of course, these are later words! ¡­¡­ "Li Shao, can you ask me what is the special project launched by al Research Institute?" "Li Shao, I heard that the project launched this time will attract widespread attention all over the world. Can you talk about the direction of this project?" "Li Shao..." "Excuse me, Li Shao..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The reporter kept handing the radio to Li Yunze, hoping to ask some real hammer news under everyone''s rumors. Li Yunze was used to such an occasion, but he just raised his eyebrows slightly and said quietly, "you''ll know when you come out. Now it''s a confidential stage. In order not to let the results leak, cause national losses and people''s interests, you''d better not embarrass me." As soon as the reporter heard it, he knew it was impossible to ask anything, so he shifted his direction. Li Yunze also released some things about research more or less. Each sentence seems to be casual, but it actually falls in the ears of those who have a heart, and there is information that can be understood to varying degrees. Fang Xiran looked at Li Yunze surrounded by reporters from a distance. Unlike Lin''s operation that day, his face was slightly tired when he just came down. At the moment, he was full of confidence and casual, emitting charming colors. The man we hope to see is really... Eye-catching! Fang Xi ran raised his eyebrows and smiled, while a man who was a bit of a fool sneered, "that''s the boy you like!" Paused, "Fang Xiran, I think you''d better give up!" Fang Xiran glanced at the man, "I don''t like you if you give up your heart. I think you''re right if you give up your heart!" The man didn''t think so, but said proudly, "didn''t you see the news in Los Angeles when you came back? You don''t know. Li Yunze and an obstetrician of Shuya are in full swing. The villa ready to get married has been decorated immediately." Fang Xi was stunned, "what did you say?" "I said, you have no chance!" The man was even more proud, "Li Yunze has a master of the famous grass." When Fang Xiran heard this, he said with gnashing teeth: "I can get divorced when I get married. I''m ready to get married. I can cut my beard before that!" The man immediately stared, "lying in the trough, Fang Xiran, how can you say that he is also the daughter of the Fang family and a proud man? Do you want to be so cheap?" "You want to die!" Fang Xiran was immediately angry. The man accepted his foolishness and hissed coldly, "I have to give you this. If you like Li Yunze, I think it''s death..." "I''ll die, you mind me!" Fang Xi snorted coldly. "I think... It''s better not to think about other people''s men. They will easily lose their identity and will not be very good-looking." Suddenly, a voice came from behind them. Chapter 1518 Fang Xiran and the man looked back and saw why he Ning was standing there. "He Yining!" The man whispered in Fang Xiran''s ear. Even, he was a little gloating and ready to see a good play. Fang Xi ran frowned slightly and wanted to kick the man who took the opportunity to put on his shoulder. He Yining came forward and looked at Fang Xiran for a while. He began to feel familiar. After thinking about it, he finally remembered that Fang Zihan had sent her photos in their small group. "Someone else''s man?" Fang Xi ran raised his eyebrows. "That must be... Is it, are you right?" Why rather smiled, smiling confidently and with a cool aura. Fang Xilan secretly observed he Yining. He wondered how a little doctor could have such composure as if he had grown out of a rich family. "Is it someone else''s? In addition to our own recognition, we also need the man''s recognition. Are you right?" He Yining''s smile is still very light, not too much, not too little, which belongs to politeness. The man frowned and said, "it''s not necessarily reasonable for you to frown. At last, the man said," I''m afraid you have a little approval. " It doesn''t matter why Fang Xiran''s strength is better. After all, although the outside world is not sure about the relationship between her and Li Yunze, their book is very real. Of course, her confidence is not that book, but Li Yunze''s feelings for her. I have to say that the lack of confidence between her and Li Yunze is just the thing hidden in her heart He Yining didn''t say anything to Fang Xiran, but went to Li Yunze. Some things are boring to say, and it seems that she really has no confidence in Li Yunze. Fang Xiran was so ignored that he was immediately dissatisfied. He hummed and raised his fighting spirit. "I want to see what ability a woman like you can have with Li Yunze for a long time." "Sissy, you''re wrong." The man who was rejected by Fang Xiran slowly opened his mouth, as if to block Fang Xiran, and said, "why Yining is the daughter of what winery in the past. She was really born in a rich family, so you just thought in your heart why she has a temperament you are familiar with, right?" "Huo Qishen, why are you so annoying?" Fang Xiran gnashed his teeth. "And you said it was before!" "Now strictly speaking, she is also a rich family!" Huo Qishen shrugged his shoulders and said happily, "he winery has been taken back. Now it is basically under the name of he Yining." ¡°¡­¡­¡± "So it''s not a problem to be a good match." Huo Qishen took his pocket with both hands and looked at Fang Xiran''s sinking face. He looked very happy, but he was a little heavy in his heart. "So what?" Fang Xi ran raised his eyebrows. "Even if I can''t get Li Yunze, I won''t be with you." Huo Qi shrugged deeply, "I''ve heard the cocoon for several years..." "..." Fang Xiran raised his feet angrily. Huo Qishen reflexively stepped back. Fang Xiran didn''t step on it. He saw an angry expression on his face and was proud of himself. Fang Xiran looked back and just stood beside Li Yunze. They looked at each other and smiled. He Yining took back his sight with his lower lip and turned away ¡­¡­ "When will the good things between Li Shao and Dr. he be done?" Some reporters began to gossip about why Yining came. Li Yunze looked at he Yining and said with a smile, "you''re asking the wrong question!" "Ah?" The reporter didn''t react for a moment. Li Yunze''s eyes were slightly deep, and he Yining''s hand was held. He picked his eyebrow and said with a evil Charm: "you should ask, doctor he, when are you going to marry Li Shao?" As soon as the "..." media listened, they immediately "attacked" he Yining. "Dr. he, when are you going to marry Li Shao?" "Dr. he, Li Shao''s proposal is so romantic. It''s been so long since this period. It''s said that the villa is about to be completely renovated. Do you have a fixed date for your marriage?" "May I ask Dr. he..." He Yining had a headache and looked at Li Yunze. His little daughter stared at him coyly and secretly pinched the soft meat on his waist. Li Yunze''s face remained unchanged, but he Yining''s hand was tight. The small movements of the two people didn''t escape the sharp eyed media. The camera in their hands kept pressing, one by one, like a cramp in their hands He Yining answered the reporter''s questions. Of course, she chose some that could be answered and some that could not. She cleverly avoided the important and ignored the important. "Dr. he, will you participate in Li Shao''s new research?" A reporter asked. He Yining''s original smile on her face was suddenly stiff, but soon, she restrained her strange expression and shook her head with a smile, "no, the research will be specially assigned, and I don''t have a pharmacist''s license, so I can''t participate in pharmaceutical research." The reporters were not surprised by the very official answer. However, the reporters who were concerned about the time when the Institute married Li Yunze and he Yining did not find that he Yining''s expression changed at that moment, and his smile at the moment showed some other emotions. "Thank you for your attention and support to the Institute. Huakang will explain the new progress." In due time, public relations personnel came forward and began to appease reporters. Li Yunze and he Yining looked at each other, held hands one after another and entered the Research Institute ¡­¡­ Meng Yi watched the news while cutting the apple. Unlike the attention of the media and the outside world, he kept looking at he Yining and Li Yunze. From their childhood to the end, he Yining was asked whether they would participate in the research. Meng Yi didn''t let go of their slightly changed face and the forced smile behind them. "Now, you should rest assured." Zheng Hao took the apple cut by Meng Yi and bit it. He said something unclear, "in the past years, no one can imagine that there are still people staring at it. That is, you have no hope for what you want to do, and you can invest and stick to it." Meng Yi takes back his sight on the TV, puts down the fruit knife, takes the remote control and turns off the TV. He leaned back slowly on the sofa and meditated for a while before saying, "it seems that I really think too much." "Our people have gone in and explored the villa. There is no problem." Zheng Hao said, "now it is basically determined that the mysterious research should be the one left by Li Yunhao..." Meng Yi nodded, looked at Zheng Hao and asked, "how many of our researchers are there?" Chapter 1519 "There are two for the time being." Zheng Hao said, "however, there is another one in front of him. He is more hopeful to enter the core research." Meng Yi nodded. "No matter what the other party wants, men, women or money are satisfied to the greatest extent. If they can''t, use some special means." "I understand." Zheng Hao nodded, "if we conquer this, we will have double insurance." Meng Yi nodded and looked ahead. The TV screen was already black, and their figures were reflected on the inside, with an unspeakable strangeness. "Although they may not think we will be with so many years..." Meng Yi slowly said, "Li Yunze is not a simple person. His intelligence is definitely not the same as Li Yunhao, but in medical research." Zheng Hao looked at Meng Yi and didn''t answer. He just waited for him to continue. Meng Yi gently taps his fingers on his overlapping legs, one after another. "It seems that we have to find opportunities to disturb Li Yunze''s heart." Yi''s voice is far away. Zheng Hao frowned, "Li Yunze is confused. How can we continue to study?" Meng Yi''s mouth was touched with a faint smile. That smile showed an unspeakable gloomy feeling. "If the research starts, we can''t stop..." after a pause, he looked at Zheng Hao. "Also, what we want is not the finished product, but the project." Zheng Hao thought and nodded, "then, how can Li Yunze disturb his mind." "This..." Meng Yi smiled, smiling strangely, "... I have my own way." "OK." Zheng Hao didn''t ask much, just looked at the time, "I''ll go first. Let''s call if there''s anything." "Yes." Meng Yi answered and watched Zheng Hao leave. Then he got up and went to the window. Looking at the rows of high-rise buildings, he suddenly felt that he was going to surpass them soon. ¡­¡­ Huo Qishen looked at Fang Xiran''s parking place and suddenly sneered, "Fang Xiran, are you going to know yourself and your enemy?" "Yes!" Fang Xi ran raised his eyebrows, "know yourself and know your enemy, and you will be invincible in a hundred battles!" Huo Qishen frowned and heard Fang Xiran say, "get off the bus, or you can drive away by yourself. I''ll go back to you and get the car." "Since you want a drink, I''ll naturally accompany you." Huo Qishen unfastened his seat belt and got out of the car. Fang Xilan first stood in front of the winery and looked at it for a while. There have been some changes here and in his impression. However, he can still be found in his memory, which shows that his family really had a high status in Los Angeles at the beginning. When Huo Qishen''s footsteps came from behind, Fang Xi ran walked in. As soon as I went in, I saw a man standing behind the bar indifferently, with two shirt necklines untied at random and his sleeves rolled up to his elbows. "Tut Tut," Huo Qishen looked at the man wiping the goblet there and said slowly, "another sad man." Fang Xiran twisted his eyebrows and looked at Huo Qishen with doubts in his eyes. "Jin shaosi, the largest person in Brunei, the current president of Jin''s group, and the person returned from Ho''s winery and vineyard." Huo Qishen said, "it is said that he used to be a winemaker of he family and had a deep love for he Yining for many years." "Huo Qishen, why don''t you be a paparazzi?" Fang Xi ran rolled his eyes. Huo Qishen listened and sneered, "Xixi, do you think it''s possible that if you want to survive, you don''t know the people in the circle?" Fang Xiran threw his lips down, did not refute, and went to the bar. "Drink?" Jin shaosi asked faintly, "do you have a personal hobby or recommend it for you?" "You recommend it!" Fang Xiran said, "I''m in a bad mood at the moment, because the man I want is with other women, and I really want to take him away." "Just think about it, or just do it if you want to..." Jin shaosi''s voice remained calm, completely ignoring Huo Qishen''s warning eyes. Fang Xiran was a little strange about Jin shaosi''s question, "what''s the difference for now?" Whether she does it or not, it is certain that she is in a bad mood at the moment. "Not really." Mr. Jin turned around and went out of the bar. Fang Xiran looked blankly and wanted to say, is this the service attitude? Although she is Jin''s president, her customer "doesn''t know"! Before he could figure it out, Jin shaosi turned back with something in his hand and immediately put it in front of Fang Xiran. "I don''t think your mood at the moment is suitable for wine tasting. This should be more suitable." Jin shaosi''s voice was still indifferent. He took the cloth towel and began to wipe the wine glass, "please." Fang Xilan looked at the beer in front of him and suddenly couldn''t react. Huo Qi''s deep mouth also twitched, and his sight slowly moved from beer to Jin shaosi who was so indifferent from beginning to end This man came back to Huo''s house from a winemaker who only knew how to make wine, and won the power in ten years... Sure enough, it''s not simple. "It''s not good to drink beer in the red wine winery?" Fang Xiran said, "if you don''t respect and don''t say, the impact is not good." "Don''t you see the sign outside?" Jin shaosi glanced at Fang Xiran lightly and said indifferently, "it''s closed today." "..." Fang Xi was stunned, "is there any She looked at Huo Qishen suspiciously. Huo Qishen shook his head and said he didn''t pay attention "Come in as soon as you come in," Jin shaosi put down the cleaned glass. "I''ll treat the wine here today. Drink whatever you want." Raised his eyes and looked at Fang Xiran. Jin shaosi turned and left without saying anything. "Hey, are you leaving like this?" Fang Xiran frowned. "I have something else to do. Someone will receive you later." Jin shaosi kept walking, took his suit, looked at the time and walked outside the winery. "I''m not afraid I''ll lose the wine here?" Fang Xiran was happy and angry. "Here? What do you think of Jin''s group, a man who makes a fortune by oil?" Huo Qishen whispered coldly, "just like you bought a bike." Fang Xiran ignored Huo Qishen, but looked at the lonely back of Jin shaosi and frowned slightly, "Hey, what if I want to do it?" Jin shaosi''s hand, who was going to push the door, paused, looked outside and sighed gently... But without saying anything, he pushed the door open and went out. "No answer!" Fang Xiran said, "that is to say, if you think about it, you will do it!" "I don''t think so." Huo Qishen picked his eyebrows and said, "Xixi, not everyone will do it when they think about it. Although they are unwilling, sometimes they feel that the real happiness of the people they like is the most important." Fang Xiran didn''t argue with Huo Qishen this time, but after a while, she asked angrily, "Why are all good men from other women? Are these men blind? Just know that they are surrounded by a woman..." Chapter 1520 After leaving the winery, Jin shaosi went to the vineyard. The car radio station is also talking about al Research Institute. Lu Fan subconsciously wants to turn it off "Listen!" Jin shaosi spoke indifferently. "Yes!" At the same time, Lu Fan looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror, sighed and continued to drive. After introducing the affairs of al Research Institute in the radio station, the host will naturally talk about some things between Li Yunze and he Yining. It''s nothing more than that their marriage is approaching. Jin shaosi looked sideways at the approaching passing outside the window. Just as spring came, he already felt the recovery of all things. Clearly full of hope, but at this moment, Jin shaosi always felt dead. Lu Fan looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror again. He endured it several times and wanted to ask Jin shaosi why he chose to stay since miss he has been with Li Yunze? Do you have to make your body incomplete? Boss''s current identity, what kind of woman do you want? Why not? It''s really so good? Of course, whether it''s good or not, Lu fan can''t evaluate it unilaterally. After all, in the eyes of his lover, no matter how bad it is, it''s also good. ¡­¡­ Sister-in-law CHENFENG packed up her mobile phone and went to the prison a few days later. She sighed that she was ready to pick up the money Anyway, even if you do something wrong, it''s your own daughter! Just as sister-in-law Feng wanted to go out to buy vegetables, her mobile phone rang. She took it out, saw it was Jason, slightly frowned and picked it up. "Hello, aunt. I''m Jason." Jason said. "Hello, excuse me... Is there anything else?" Asked sister-in-law Feng. "Well, there''s a little problem with the design now, because considering Vivian''s situation, I wonder if you can ask Vivian some questions for me." Asked Jason. Sister-in-law Feng wanted to take so much money from others. Anyway, she would go to Los Angeles to see Qu Weiwei in a few days, so she pondered and agreed. "Yes, but I have a bad memory now. Can you tell me what to ask when I go to see Weiwei?" Asked sister-in-law Feng. "Yes, please call me when you go to see Vivian. I''ll keep on calling." "OK, OK." After sister-in-law Feng answered, she said goodbye to Jason and hung up. Looking at the mobile phone for a long time, sister-in-law Feng sighed heavily and stepped out of the door with the basket Looking at the quiet alley and the lively market in front, sister-in-law Feng has a sour nose and always feels guilty. If when I was a child, I didn''t feel the kindness of the master and his wife and ignored Weiwei for taking extra care of the young lady, would she not have the idea of what kind of child she was because of her negligence? If it weren''t for that idea, maybe Weiwei wouldn''t be unwilling to come to this step today Thinking of this, sister-in-law Feng''s eyes were slightly red. She stood in place and looked at the old wall, blaming herself more and more. ¡­¡­ When the sound of "Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa Pa. "OK, done!" J raised his eyebrow and pressed the Enter key. Then he saw a fast progress bar on the computer screen. At 100% of the time, there was a ''drop'', and j got up with a smile and spread his hand to Li Yunze. "Gu Beichen said, I''ll guide you through the firewall, and you''ll give me interesting and delicious food." Li Yun smiled, went to one side of the cabinet, opened it, took out a large bottle full of 500 pills and handed it to J. J took the frown and shook, "medicine?" Li Yunze smiled. "Of course not," he motioned him to open it. "Beichen said you like to eat all kinds of things. I extracted some flowers and plants that are good for your body and Chinese herbal medicines that are good for your eyes and can prevent radiation to make sugar." "Is there anything bitter?" As soon as J heard it, he brightened his eyes, took out one at random and threw it into his mouth. Then he screwed his whole face together, "huh..." He Yining looked at J, who didn''t hide it at all. With a pure expression, he was curious about what the first one he ate tasted. "It''s not all bitter here, is it?" J''s face was directly wrinkled by bitterness and looked at Li Yunze. "Where is sugar? It''s medicine." "There are bitter ones here. One is made of balsam pear and the other is made of lotus seed heart..." Li Yunze smiled. "You''re lucky. You get bitter one the first time." "Really?" J took another one and put it in his mouth with a little care. Sure enough, this time it was sweet and smelled of flowers. "Hey, this is the smell of sunflowers. Jane Mo''s favorite!" He dropped his eyes and lips, "unfortunately, the appearance is the same, or you can give Jane foam the smell of sunflower..." J got a strange sugar bean and left happily. He Yining waited until he left and couldn''t help sighing, "I really can''t understand the world of genius." Li Yunze smiled and kissed he Yining on the cheek. "Things at the research institute are almost the same, and it has been set up there. Next, we will all start to be busy." "It''s worth it." He Yining held Li Yunze''s waist, slightly pasted his body, but looked back at him slightly, "Beichen helped a lot this time." "Well, life changing brother." Li Yunze gently pinched he Yining''s nose, hugged her and looked around the monitoring room. J''s firewall has been started. Next, it''s really going to be busy "Yining, shall we rush the wedding first?" Li Yunze suddenly asked. He Yining smiled and said, "we already have a marriage certificate, so don''t be so anxious about the wedding..." she gently fanned her eyes. "At the wedding, I want to be around one by one. We can also find Beichen and Momo''s children to be flower children for us." After a pause, he Yining continued, "the most important thing is that I don''t want to be too hasty. I don''t want you to have something in mind and spare energy and time to make me feel at ease." "I''m just afraid that the time is too short to let you enjoy the only time in your life." Li Yunze''s cheek slightly touched the top of why Ning''s hair, gently rubbed it, felt her breath and said, "this research, I will give myself one to two years, the slowest two years... Yining, I will give you the best wedding!" Why rather smile, comfortable smile, smile without thinking about anything, "OK..." "What would you like to eat tonight?" Li Yunze asked. "Shall we go to the night market?" He Yining raised his eyes and asked. Li Yunze looked at he Yining with some pain, and her eyes became deep. "Yining, you don''t need to do it for me. The first intuition is to think about how to let others directly understand whether our relationship is true or false." "But I really want to eat the night market. Kill two birds with one stone, don''t I?" Chapter 1521 Night market. For ordinary girls, the most delicious food can always be found here, which makes people linger and forget to return at high quality and low price. Li Yunze looked at how he Yining ate happily. He also felt that the food seemed to become delicious. "In the past, people said that whether something tastes good or not sometimes has nothing to do with the food itself." Li Yunze put down a lamb row bone he had just chewed off and wiped his hands with a paper towel. "It has nothing to do with food. What does it have to do with?" He Yining is drinking delicious mutton soup. It''s hot. He feels very satisfied in the cold night at the end of winter and early spring. "And people!" Li Yunze said with a smile, "if you eat with someone you like, you probably think balsam pear is sweet." "No!" He Yining put down the spoon and said solemnly, "even if I eat with you, balsam pear is also bitter!" "..." Li Yunze rolled his eyes discontentedly, "metaphor, metaphor, do you understand?" Looking at Li Yunze''s angry appearance, why should Ning zhe smile and ask, "let''s go to have Malatang later?" "Is this an invitation?" Li Yunze asked deliberately. He Yining instantly remembered the so-called "spicy hot" paragraph when he was in the South China Sea. He kicked Li Yunze under the table angrily. "Not serious." Li Yunze leaned over to he Yining slightly, smiled with evil charm at the corners of his mouth, and said vaguely: "I haven''t been serious for a few days, so let me be serious!" He Yining looked around, a little shy. After all, this is a night market. People come and go. Even if no one hears Li Yunze''s words, he has a thick skin and she feels dry when he says that kind of thing in public! "I don''t think I will love spicy hot any more..." why should I rather curl my lips bitterly. Li Yunze quickly kissed her on the cheek. When he stared at her, he said in a completely unknown way: "I like... You eat spicy hot." "..." why did Ning twitch uncontrollably at the corners of his mouth and feel a little like crying without tears. Finally, he Yining and Li Yunze went to eat spicy hot. Like young men and women in deep love, they are full of love for each other from eating to leaving, occasionally bickering, occasionally playing... Or pretending to put on their faces. I looked at the car leaving the night market and gradually became profound. A person can act, or even act all the time, but it''s impossible for two people to "act" anytime and anywhere when they have such a subtle expression on each other! The man turned around, dialed the phone and said in English: "the relationship between the two people is very close. It seems that the rumors of marriage are not false..." "Don''t always focus on the two of them," someone from the other party said. "Since the Institute has started the project, nine times out of ten it will be related to Aaron Li and focus on the Institute. I don''t want to miss what I should have got this time because of my last mistake, okay?" "I see!" After the man answered, he heard a hang up tone from his mobile phone. He hung his hand, looked back and could not see the direction of Li Yunze''s car. After closing his windbreaker, he left in another direction ¡­¡­ The night is like water, ambiguous like honey. The "heat" rising in the room can dispel the cold of the whole night. The voice of Jiao Chuan is caught in the rough breath, which not only meets the most harmonious movement of life, but also brings each other into the most wonderful realm Li Yunze hugged the tired he Yining who was tossed by himself, and his eyes penetrated the darkness and looked at the roof. "Why don''t you sleep?" He Yining arched his body on Li Yunze, and his tired eyes couldn''t open. "Sleep." Li Yunze took back his sight, slightly turned over and completely held he Yining in his arms, closed his eyes, "Yining..." "Huh?" Why should the voice begin to be illusory and ethereal. "I said..." Li Yunze''s voice paused. Just when he wanted to continue, he felt that the people in his arms were breathing evenly, just like a deep sleep attitude. Li Yunze opened his eyes again, with a faint smile in his mouth, and sighed helplessly. Everyone is asleep. What else does he say? Slightly drooping his head, Li Yunze''s lips fell on he Yining''s forehead, and his thin touch showed the perfection under his heart. Li Yunze thought that such a confession should always be said when his mind is clear, otherwise it will be too informal But at the moment, he didn''t expect that if he didn''t say anything at this time, he would be separated by life and death when he exports again! The sunshine in early spring always brings the softest temperature and lazily ushers in a new day. The sun and moon change, day by day under the law of nature, and never stop its pace because of someone or something. Al Research Institute officially entered the research. Li Yunze and he Yining also want to move into the villa and start their marital cohabitation ¡­¡­ Sister-in-law Feng stood outside the Los Angeles prison, anxious because she had been waiting for a long time. As she was pacing, she saw the policeman who had gone in and asked before coming out. She hurried forward and asked, "can I see my daughter?" "I''m sorry, Qu Weiwei is listed on the list of no visitors. I''ve asked the director, but I can''t..." the policeman shook his head. "Aunt, look, why don''t you... Come back later? Don''t worry, Qu Weiwei is doing well here, that is, reform through labor, and will go out in more than two years." "Is there no way to accommodate?" Sister-in-law Feng twisted her eyebrows and asked. The policeman also looked embarrassed. "Aunt, don''t embarrass me. I can''t help it." Sister-in-law Feng was silent and looked at the police officer. Seeing that he still shook his head, she could only thank him and left the prison in three steps. Back in the city, sister-in-law Feng found an Express Hotel and thought about whether to find he Yining. After thinking about it, sister-in-law Feng still didn''t make the call. Not only because of the guilt of he Tianshu and Meng Ya in the car accident, but also because of what Qu Weiwei did to he Yining Sister-in-law Feng sat beside the bed with her mobile phone in a daze, thought for a while, and finally called Tan Zhonglang. ¡­¡­ "The purchase of this batch of wine is limited, and each person can only have two bottles at most." Tan Zhonglang looked helplessly at Fang Xiran, the only guest who closed down that day. "Miss Fang, even if president Jin came, he wouldn''t give you more." "But I want to give it away. Two bottles are too few..." "This..." Tan Zhonglang just opened his mouth and his mobile phone rang. Seeing that it was sister-in-law Feng, he said "sorry" to Fang Xiran and went to one side to answer the phone, "sister-in-law Feng?" "Alan, there''s something I need you to help me?" Tan Zhonglang''s eyes deepened and guessed what sister-in-law Feng wanted him to help. "Sister-in-law Feng, if I see Weiwei, I have no way this time..." Chapter 1522 "I understand..." sister-in-law Feng sighed. Tan Zhonglang frowned a little sadly and then said, "Sister Feng, it''s not easy for Weiwei to come out this time. The only thing we have now is to pray that nothing will happen again so that she can come out as scheduled." "Sister-in-law Wei should have done something wrong..." she sighed, as if she could have done something wrong again. " After a pause, she asked, "can you help me find the address of the director of the prison?" Tan Zhonglang wanted to say that even finding the director of the prison is useless. In Los Angeles, who wants to offend those top rich families? Those people are root to root. If they offend a family, they may offend a large area Besides, Li Yunze is not only surrounded by Gu Beichen in the mall, but also by the Lin family, which plays an important role in the military and political circles. However, what a mother wants to do for her children, even if she knows that her children are wrong, she still can''t put it down "OK, I''ll find a way to get it for you later." Tan Zhonglang asked, "where are you now?" "I''m in the hotel." "I''m busy here. I''ll come to you..." "If you are busy, don''t come here. I just come up to see Weiwei." Sister-in-law Feng sighed, "I had to ask others about the design. If I can''t see it, it''s the only way." Tan Zhonglang looked back at Fang Xiran, who was still waiting. He didn''t say much. After explaining to sister-in-law Feng, he hung up the phone. Seeing that Tan Zhonglang had returned, Fang Xiran said to himself, "is it right that everyone is limited to two bottles?" Tan Zhonglang nodded, "two bottles!" "Good!" Fang Xiran nodded. Just when Tan Zhonglang thought she was giving up, she took out her mobile phone, dialed a group of numbers and put it in her ear. "Bring me eight people to Ho''s winery... Now! Yes, I''m here, hurry up... Um, OK!" Fang Xiran calmly hung up the phone. Tan Zhonglang had a headache. "You prepare the bar, a total of ten people, twenty bottles..." Fang Xi ran said with a smile. "Alang, put the wine directly on the purchase restriction of members, and non members don''t sell it!" Suddenly, a faint sound came from behind. Tan Zhonglang and Fang Xiran looked at it at the same time and saw Jin shaosi''s indifference of copying his pocket with one hand coming in. Jin shaosi didn''t even look at Fang Xiran. He crossed her and went inside. Fang Xi ran stared and felt ignored, "major Jin!" Jin shaosi slightly and invisibly frowned, stopped, and slowly turned to look at Fang Xiran. The indifferent face has no expression change. Looking at Fang Xiran''s line of sight is the same as looking at a stranger. Fang Xiran stepped down from the high stool without the slightest hesitation. He walked up to Mr. Jin and said, "it''s not appropriate for you to do business?" "My place, I like how." Jin shaosi''s voice was indifferent without any emotion. "Before the purchase restriction, I didn''t say I had to be a member." "I suddenly thought... What''s the problem?" "..." Fang Xi ran bared his teeth, "are you intentional or don''t you want to sell it?" "This batch of wine is originally produced less, and the taste is even better. I didn''t sit down and start the price, which is against the nature of my businessman. The purchase restriction is just a means." Fang Xiran nodded with a slight smile, as if he agreed with Jin shaosi, "well, members are members. I''ll give all ten of us members!" Tan Zhonglang shook his head reluctantly. Although the taste of this batch of wine is good, it can never reach the level of collection. Is it necessary for this woman to stick it? "Lang, do it for her!" Jin shaosi always spoke indifferently, "if you don''t make money, it also goes against my merchant nature. After all, the members of Ho''s winery are not cheap." Then he didn''t stop, turned and walked towards the wine cellar From beginning to end, Jin shaosi looked at Fang Xiran and his eyes were full of alienation under strange circumstances. Fang Xiran looked at the back of Jin shaosi leaving. A pair of sharp eyes quenched from the army were angry, but it was as if something was flowing. When Huo Qishen came, he heard about Fang Xiran''s behavior and couldn''t stand it. "I said, if I didn''t know you were going to deal with Li Yunze, I suspect you took a fancy to major Jin and used such childish and stupid behavior to attract his attention..." Huo Qishen''s mouth is very poisonous, even in the face of Fang Xiran, who likes it very much. "Say it again!" Fang Xiran was already on fire. When Huo Qishen said she was stupid, she said she was childish. Suddenly, she was angry and ran up. "Of course I have seed!" Huo Qishen took out his card and gave it to tan Zhonglang, gesturing to him to continue after swiping the membership fee and wine money. Xiran said, "but I don''t say it twice." Fang Xiran was in a hurry. If the occasion was not inappropriate, she would have a direct fight with Huo Qishen. "My goal is only Li Yunze!" Fang Xiran said with gnashing teeth, "also, half of these wines are for you... Since you are so ungrateful, I can only feed them to goldfish." Huo Qishen listened to Fang Xiran and thought of him. His face relaxed immediately and changed into a playful smile, "Xi Xi..." "Get out!" "Don''t be so stingy. The army can''t make you less generous?" "Ha ha, you look like me..." Fang Xilan was too lazy to argue with Huo Qishen. When his eyes fluttered, he saw Jin shaosi holding a bottle of red wine. He didn''t know when he was standing nearby. "Do you like Li Yunze?" Jin shaosi looked at Fang Xiran and asked. At the thought of Jin shaosi''s indifference, Fang Xiran hissed, "what''s your business?" "It''s none of my business to destroy Yining''s happiness." Jin shaosi said calmly, "I advise you not to intervene. If you don''t get it, you will only humble yourself to the dust." After that, Jin shaosi walked out "Are you telling me that you have been humble to the dust?" Fang Xiran knew it was impolite to say so, but at this moment, she didn''t know what to smoke. Jin shaosi stopped and slowed down for a few seconds before turning his head and looking at Fang Xiran, "I''m never proud in front of her, so what if I''m humble to the dust?" His voice was slightly cold, "but you are proud. Can you be humble to the dust for Li Yunze and not have the emotion you shouldn''t have?" The cynical words were absolute. Jin shaosi indifferently withdrew his sight and left Fang Xiran a thorny problem. "Real man..." Huo Qishen sighed, "if you can pick it up and put it down, no wonder you can control the whole Jin family for ten years." Fang Xiran glanced at Huo Qishen and his eyes fell on Jin shaosi. He frowned with some dissatisfaction. "Can''t I love someone when I''m proud? If you love someone just to be humble to the dust, it''s not love!" Chapter 1523 Jin shaosi sat in the car and looked at the red wine in his hand and gradually deepened his eyes. "Boss, can you send it to miss he?" Lu fan asked. Jin shaosi didn''t answer immediately, but gently rubbed the wine bottle with his fingers for a while. After a touch of self mockery, he said, "forget it..." Lu Fan looked in the rearview mirror. "Didn''t boss come here to get it for miss he?" "She''s moving to live with Li Yunze in the evening..." Jin shaosi raised his eyes and looked out. "I want to bless, but it''s not my intention. Why embarrass myself and make Yining feel guilty?!" Lu Fan slightly twisted his eyebrows, sighed and asked, "at that moment..." "Go to the vineyard." Jin shaosi spoke faintly. "OK." Jin shaosi took back his sight, threw the red wine in his hand onto the car seat, lay back on the seat, slowly closed his eyes and pretended to sleep Yining has done this step. You must overcome the barrier in your heart and be happy with Li Yunze. In that way, even if I am unwilling, I will feel that my choice is right because you have been happy. ¡­¡­ After signing a serious case to Li Yunze, yanmiao asked, "you live together. Do you know one by one?" "I said in the video the day before yesterday..." Li Yunze got up and took off his white coat. "But she didn''t plan to pick it up for the time being. She just adapted to there. Changing back and forth is not good for her growth. She plans to turn back when she goes to primary school." If the research results are ideal, it should be OK to go to primary school one by one. As soon as the application for international patents comes down, it will naturally be protected by the state, so it will not be afraid of the coveted by those who want to. 11. It''s better to grow up around your parents. Li Yunze knows this better than anyone else. After all, after Gu Beichen and Jian Mo lost Xiao Yan, he can better understand the importance of children around their parents Li Yunze drove to Shuya to pick up he Yining. First, he went to the family courtyard to get the necessities, and then went to the villa. "I bought you a car in the garage," Li Yunze said. "Usually we go to and from work together. I''ll just be the driver... I''m afraid it''s inconvenient for you when I can''t attend to it occasionally." "Yes." He Yining answered with a smile and didn''t refuse. Li Yunze stopped at the red light intersection, turned his head, pulled he Yining''s hand and squeezed it, with a deep sigh in his voice, "Yining, thank you for your support and willing to face it with me..." He Yining looked up at Li Yunze and smiled, "I want to try again for us!" Li Yunze looked at the eye signal light and said, "I think we may be able to put down everything after brother''s research..." "Yes." He Yining nodded, hoping so in his heart. When that day comes, even if Li Yunze knows that she was the one who "killed" Yunhao''s brother, maybe she will forgive him. ''didi... '' There was a hurried voice behind the car. Li Yunze loosened why he Ning started the car and continued to drive to the villa. The brand-new villa has no problem from the appearance and inside. He Yining stood in the living room and looked around, looking at the new house full of simplicity and romance, and gently fanned his eyes. Li Yunze took why Ning into his arms from behind, wrapped her hand in her abdomen, gently shook her body and slowly opened his mouth: "this will not only be our home, but also the place where we try to break through all obstacles." After a pause, Li Yunze asked slowly, "Yining, do you have confidence in me?" "Yes..." why Ning''s head leaned back, and his voice was full of firmness. "And you?" Li Yunze''s voice tightened slightly. "Do you have confidence in yourself?" He Yining was silent, and the position of the heart was a little tight. Such austerity comes from Li Yunze, who only thinks it is her parents'' reason, not her tension "As long as you have confidence in me, I have confidence in myself." He Yining finally said gently. Li Yunze smiled. He gently rubbed the top of he Yining''s hair with his chin, "I have confidence in you..." He Yining heard him say so, and the corners of his mouth involuntarily raised a deeper smile. At the moment, neither of them found that there was a missing question in the question of "confidence"! ¡­¡­ After getting the address of the director of the prison from Tan Zhonglang, sister-in-law Feng has been waiting for the rabbit. Unexpectedly, it took a week to see someone. "I''m really embarrassed by you..." the director looked at sister-in-law Feng and said, "it''s explained. Qu Weiwei can''t receive guests." "I know clearly, but because Weiwei sold a design before and had a little problem, now in this situation, she always has to explain to others." Sister-in-law Feng said, her eyes are a little red. "Moreover, I also want to see my daughter... Director, please." Speaking, sister-in-law Feng put an envelope in front of the director. It''s hard for you to look at the envelope like this. I can''t help but sigh "Director, thank you..." Sister-in-law Feng hurriedly left her number, but she didn''t dare to delay the long time and left with gratitude. In this world, no one doesn''t like money. But even if we meet, it''s not a big deal. We can get a considerable number, and the director is naturally happy to give a favor. Anyway, what''s going on later? Just let Li Yunze have a look at the monitoring. He can still make a profit. Two days later Sister-in-law Feng sat in the prison inspection office and waited. When a "clang" came to open the iron door, she quickly looked inside with her neck hooked Qu Weiwei sat down behind the glass and slowly picked it up when sister-in-law Feng picked up the microphone. "Weiwei, are you okay?" As soon as sister-in-law Feng asked, her eyes immediately turned red. "I brought some food and things for use. You can take them in later." "Yes." Qu Weiwei''s voice is calm, even cold. Recently, Wang Xia took the lead. The whole cell was happy to bully her. She was alone and had no other choice but to bear And all this is caused by Ning and Li Yunze! "How did you get in?" Qu Weiwei asked. Sister-in-law Feng didn''t dare to say more about her extraordinary means. She knew there was monitoring here, but she couldn''t understand the past. "By the way, Jason..." sister-in-law Feng said, "said that there were some things they didn''t understand about the design drawing, that is, they read the mailbox left on the design drawing, and there were two pages of copies they didn''t understand..." Qu Weiwei''s eyes suddenly gathered. Different from the indifference just now, her eyes became a little nervous when looking at sister-in-law Feng The two manuscripts are not in the email copy at all. They are for Meng Yi to take away. Meng Yi wants to get something from he Yining. She doesn''t know. She just intuitively believes that it will be useful to Meng Yi wait! Qu Weiwei''s pupils expanded slightly, and a clear light burst out of her eyes Chapter 1524 Jason won''t see the information on the design drawing, that is, Meng Yi gets it and asks Jason to pass the information to her through his mother? If so Qu Weiwei just looked at sister-in-law Feng and kept turning in her mind. Meng Yi wanted to send her the message. "Weiwei, Weiwei..." when sister-in-law Feng saw Qu Weiwei''s dull appearance, she shouted a few times in a hurry. "Huh?" Qu Weiwei suddenly recalled, "Oh, I just thought about the design. I was distracted." "Does that need to be changed?" After sister-in-law Feng asked, she suddenly sighed a little discouraged, "even if you change it now, I can''t take it away. You tell me, I can''t understand. What if you convey it wrong?" "That price is the price of the manuscript before. Now they want to change it, and it can''t be based on that price." Qu Weiwei said, "don''t worry." "Is that really good?" Sister-in-law Feng asked, "after all, so much money." "Mom, do you think my design is a casual picture on the floor?" Qu Weiwei said unhappily, "if it weren''t for the current situation, I wouldn''t talk to each other at all." After a pause, Qu Weiwei was obviously a little upset and said, "well, don''t spend the money in unnecessary places. If you like living in a small town, just wait for me to come out." "But..." "Well, it''s time." The prison guard timely reminded the people inside and took Qu Weiwei away. Sister-in-law Feng was in a hurry and stood up with the telephone microphone, as if she wanted to touch Qu Weiwei urgently, "Weiwei..." Qu Weiwei looked at sister-in-law Feng, put down the microphone indifferently, said nothing, and returned to the cell under the escort of the prison guard. The iron door closed in front of sister-in-law Feng, and tears burst out of her eyes at that moment. "Weiwei..." sister-in-law Feng choked. "You must be good and try to come out early. Mom is waiting for you outside and has been waiting for you... Ah?!" No one answered sister-in-law Feng, except the desolate air in the empty reception room. Qu Weiwei walked forward step by step, because she couldn''t hear sister-in-law Feng''s cry through the soundproof glass. Perhaps, even if she heard it, she was indifferent at the moment. In my mind, it was all the information returned by Meng Yi. Qu Weiwei''s eyes gradually gathered together and looked at the separation lines of the cells in front. Her steps were mechanical and her mind was completely the original scene ¡­¡­ Why would you rather kick and go back to the vineyard. Qu Weiwei just came out to have a rest when she saw he Yining throw herself directly into the sofa. At the same time, she also threw her things on the tea table. "Didn''t you go to Li Yunze?" Qu Weiwei asked. "He''s not here. He hasn''t come back after waiting for a long time." He Yining looked at the roof, blinked his eyes, and said in a decadent voice, "Weiwei, I almost feel I can''t hold on..." Qu Weiwei went to one side and sat down. "I''ve heard that more than 20 times. You''re still so persistent." Why should Ning hang her eyes and look at Qu Weiwei? She just looks like she has no choice but to roll her eyes. She hums in her nose and sits up, "if you can''t get it, you won''t let people complain." Qu Weiwei smiled and shook her head. Before she spoke, she heard sister-in-law Feng coming out of the kitchen "Miss, I just made steamed eggs and you came back. Your nose is so sharp!" "Wow!" Why should Ning run directly and happily, circle sister-in-law Feng''s arm, lean her head on her shoulder and say coquettishly, "sister-in-law Feng is the best for me. Every time I have some negative energy, sister-in-law Feng can cure me as soon as possible... How can I love you so much!" "Just your sweet mouth." Sister-in-law Feng was so amused by why Ning was laughing that her eyes were almost narrowed. She was completely spoiled and said, "I want you to have more combat effectiveness and take Li Shao!" "It''s necessary. With the support of sister-in-law Feng, my combat effectiveness is bursting!" Qu Weiwei touched the corner of her mouth and looked back He Yining and sister-in-law Feng chatted happily. That feeling is like the interaction between a mother who dotes on her daughter and a daughter who depends on her mother. But that man is clearly her mother! Qu Weiwei slightly clenched her hand and forcibly took back her sight... Just landed on the tea table. Looking at the paper scattered in the bag that he Yining just threw onto the tea table at any time, Qu Weiwei frowned, curiously attached to her body and took out the papers. There are various patterns of molecular fission in professional terms. Although Qu Weiwei can''t understand it, she thinks it should be something Li Yunze studies medicine. Looking back, he Yining was eating steamed eggs while chatting happily with sister-in-law Feng. Qu Weiwei suddenly felt angry in her heart. While taking back her sight, she took two folded sheets from the middle "Weiwei, what do you want to eat in the evening? I''ll do it later?" Sister-in-law Feng asked when Qu Weiwei got up and wanted to go back to her room. "I''ll eat whatever I like. I''ll go back to my room and read first." "Yes." Sister-in-law Feng is not surprised. Qu Weiwei studies very hard and never needs her to worry more. Qu Weiwei went back to the room and looked at the two pages in her hand and quietly pressed them into her private box It is estimated that why would rather go to Li Yunze and accidentally bring back those calculation papers. Even if she returns it back, there are still two less. Let''s see how she explains to Li Yunze Qu Weiwei has shown her arrogant face in her youth, with dissatisfaction and malice. That''s the breath that has been swallowed up after being suppressed for a long time. Once it breaks out... It will get out of control. ¡­¡­ When the clatter of the lock came, Qu Weiwei stood where she was, mechanically looked back at the closed cell door and looked back to her bed. Everyone is eating food. Qu Weiwei doesn''t have to think about it. She knows it''s those sent in by her mother However, when she saw that the biscuit crumbs and plastic bags were on her bed, Qu Weiwei looked deep and turned her head to Wang Xia. "I haven''t been so satisfied for a long time..." Wang Xia shook the chicken thigh in her hand. "Do you want to come and have a bite?" "Only dogs can chew!" Qu Weiwei said coldly, indifferently took back her sight and turned to the small yard two meters wide outside each cell. When people went out, they heard Wang Xia''s voice of shouting and scolding. Qu Weiwei snorted coldly and didn''t mind offending Wang Xia again. Anyway, if you don''t offend her, Wang Xia won''t be friendly to her one day Qu Weiwei looked up. Looking at the white clouds floating on the blue sky, I gradually lost my mind He Yining, now I finally understand what Meng Yi wants. In those days, he Tianshu and Meng ya, the so-called "you know that thing", questioned Li Yunze about what happened Chapter 1525 Qu Weiwei had a faint smile in her mouth. That kind of smile was frightening. Even Wang Xia, who has always been happy to bully her, was going to come out to find her trouble at the moment, but when she saw the smile, she felt a chill in the soles of her feet, dispelled the idea of venting, didn''t understand what was going on, and went back to her cell. Qu Weiwei stood like this, because she looked up at the sky. After a long time, the whole person was a little dizzy. She closed her eyes and hung her head slowly When the feeling of dizziness passed, he slowly opened his eyes. Why did Meng Yi send this message to her? Do you want her to tell Li Yunze? Qu Weiwei raised her mouth slightly. It seems that she should find a way to inquire about the news outside ¡­¡­ "Do you remember everything?" Li Jiyuan took the album and asked. Li Yunze nodded. "I didn''t expect big brother to write the process here." "I lost the calculation draft and couldn''t find it." Li Jiyuan put the album back on the shelf and said, "that''s the first draft, so he didn''t care too much, so he wrote it behind the photo..." As he spoke, Li Jiyuan looked obviously across a touch of sadness. Maybe it was because I didn''t care at the beginning that there was a later tragedy. Who would have thought that the first few pages of the draft lost at the beginning would make the criminals move their evil thoughts that they shouldn''t have. The atmosphere was a little stiff. Li Jiyuan sighed and turned around. Looking at Li Yunze, he said, "if you start this project again, you don''t know what you will face. You should be careful in everything, okay?" "I can''t lose what''s in my mind." Li Yunze said, "practicing medicine in an innocent way is only for curing diseases. We will not give the poison to anyone, nor will we encourage anyone to use it." "Yes." Li Jiyuan nodded, then said with a smile, "since the matter between you and Yining has been decided to be done later, I''ll let you... Yining''s girl is not easy, and you should let go of your proud temperament." "Dad, I''m not a child now. I know what I want." "Yes." Li Jiyuan said, "bring Yining back for dinner tomorrow," paused. "I''ll tell Jinxi later and let Chen Yu come back!" "OK." "All right, you have something to do first..." "Then I''ll go first." After Li Yunze said something, he left Li''s house, went to Shuya to pick up he Yining, and went back to their new home together. the second day. Why should she rather stand in the Li family, which was once familiar to her as if it were her own home, with some mixed feelings in her heart. It is not only a dream, but also a timidity towards Li Yunhao. "The ugly daughter-in-law always wants to see her in-law..." Li Yunze looked at why Ning was nervous and couldn''t help teasing. "Besides, you used to be more diligent here than me. I almost think I''m a guest and you''re the Lord." He has a thick face, but now he has no face "It''s all right. You have me now. You can continue to be thick together..." Li Yunze came forward and took he Yining''s hand. He Yining glared at Li Yunze angrily, and was dissatisfied with his roundabout saying that she was'' thick skinned ''. "Let''s go!" He Yining nodded. With Li Yunze''s footsteps, her heart tightened uncontrollably Why should Ning try her best to bear it? This step she will face sooner or later, for Li Yunze, for her dream from childhood to adulthood, and for one by one... She must face it. "Why are your hands so cold?" Li Yunze suddenly frowned. He Yining swallowed involuntarily, pulled the corners of his mouth and said, "it''s estimated that I''m a little too nervous... After all, I haven''t seen Uncle Li for a long time..." "What?" Li Yunze interrupted he Yining. He Yining changed his mouth and said, "I haven''t seen my father!" Li Yunze smiled and rubbed his head with satisfaction. He spoiled and said, "Dad specially told me not to bully you, so don''t worry, the backer is very hard." He Yining listened and his nervous mood eased slightly, so he nodded. Before they entered the villa, the sound of the car came from behind. They looked back and saw that after the car was parked in the parking lot, Chen Yu and Li Jinxi got out of the car. "How are Jin Xi and Chen Yu now?" He Yining asked. Li Yunze looked deeply, "it''s still like that, but it shouldn''t be worse..." Why did you rather talk without saying anything. Li Yunze grabbed her hand and clenched it slightly. He knew what she was thinking. He just sighed secretly and didn''t say much at the moment. Some things need time to prove, but also need time to precipitate, so that the guilt under self blame can be diluted. A meal to welcome he Yining finally into Li''s house. The dinner was very pleasant, and Li Jiyuan was the happiest. "Yining girl, you''ve got my Yunze in the end." He Yining looked at Li Yunze with some embarrassment and said, "I think life is particularly perfect." Li Jiyuan immediately smiled comfortably. Such a smile seemed to infect people. Even Li Jinxi, who had been in a mood of repetition, felt that the meal was very pleasant. Chen Xuan picked up the red wine glass, glanced at he Yining inadvertently, looked at Li Yunze and took back his eyes. If he didn''t understand Yunze''s words in blues last time, why should he rather have something to do with Li Yunhao Even if it''s not her, I''m afraid it has something to do with he Yining. But even so, Yunze is still willing to be with he Yining. It should be true love. Thinking, Chen Yu looked at Li Jinxi and wondered when she would put down her past and accept him again. Jinxi, don''t be too long. I''m afraid... I''ve been lost for too long and forgot how to fight for it. Chen Yu astringently took back his sight and sipped the red wine. He only felt the taste in his mouth with a touch of bitterness. Li Yunze''s mobile phone suddenly vibrated in his pocket. He took it out, his eyes slightly invisible deep, got up and said, "you eat first, I''ll answer the phone." "Don''t take it too long. If I can''t control my ''bullying'' later, Yining, don''t blame me for not reminding you." Li Jinxi said with a smile. "Good idea?" Li Yunze glanced at him and then raised his eyebrow at why Ning. "Take out your previous skills and don''t suffer losses, huh?!" Why Ning zhe smiled and nodded, then looked at Li Jinxi and smiled. While Li Yunze left the table, he answered the phone, "huh?" "Li Shao, that''s right." The voice of the prison guard of Los Angeles prison came over the phone, "Qu Weiwei has been asking about you and miss he these two days." "Huh?" Li Yunze frowned. "I''m asking when I''m working and eating, and I don''t know why..." said the guard. "Oh, by the way, her mother came to see her two days ago, and then it was like this." Without waiting for Li Yunze to speak, the prison guard immediately asked, "Li Shao, do you want me to transfer out the monitoring of their reception and show you?" Chapter 1526 Li Yunze looked at the night outside through the French window. Instinctively, he didn''t know why and resisted. Weining will inquire about him for no reason, but Weining Li Yunze''s eyes were deep, thinking that it should not be sister-in-law Feng talking about him and Yining. After all, how could sister-in-law Feng say they came to stimulate her daughter at this time?! Why is that? "Li Shao?" Seeing that Li Yunze didn''t speak, the prison guard asked carefully. "I''ll come tomorrow and you''ll intercept the video first." Li Yunze said, paused and continued, "I''ve arranged for your brother''s hospitalization. There''s no accident. I can have an operation next week." The prison guard immediately thanked him with gratitude. Huakang''s medical level is too high, coupled with the existence of Li Yunze, the great God of surgery, the bed there can be said to be difficult to find. Many times, even if you have enough money, you can''t live in the hospital. After hearing that Li Weikang was not able to take care of her brother, she naturally hoped that Li Weikang would not be able to take care of her. In this world, no one can get it for no reason. If you want to get it, you naturally have to pay Li Yunze has plenty of resources. He doesn''t need to give a special explanation to those who want to take the initiative to do something. After hanging up the phone, Li Yunze returned to the table as usual. "What else can I do now?" Li Jinxi said casually. "The hospital arranged an operation, and I dispatched it." Li Yunze didn''t lie. He Yining looked at Li Yunze and pushed the shrimp just peeled to him. Starting from Li Jiyuan, he immediately laughed. "When I saw Yining skinning shrimp, I was still wondering if it was for you..." Li Jiyuan said with a smile, "sure enough!" "If you can''t envy something, you have to say it. Don''t you envy it even more?" Li Yunze said, looking at why Ning is a satisfied smile. In the past, he Yining wished he could feed Li Yunze with his own hands. In addition to learning to cook at the beginning, it can be said that she can do things that can help Li Yunze easily. Of course, Li Yunze disdained it! That is, because of the disdain at the beginning, Li Yunze can always think of the original scene in an instant, but he is more happy. "How about Beichen and Xiaomo?" Li Jiyuan asked. "Almost solved." Li Yunze put down the cup. "It''s all made by the second uncle. It''s a misunderstanding from beginning to end." After a pause, he heaved a long sigh, "now, Beichen hopes aunt Gu can put down her rejection of Jian Mo, and everyone is happy." "Lan Xi''s temperament is proud, but Beichen''s son is sandwiched in the middle. Jane Mo can understand. She''s a mother. She won''t embarrass her son..." Li Jiyuan sighed, "it''s the happiest for us to see that you are happy one by one." When the words fell, Li Jiyuan looked at Li Jinxi with some meaning. Li Jinxi slightly clenched his hand with chopsticks and didn''t go to see Chen Yu. He just covered up all his emotions and said with a smile, "Dad, your children and grandchildren have their own blessings. You''d better worry more about your traditional Chinese medicine research!" Chen Yu felt a loss at the bottom of his eyes, but think about it, at least now he has got the understanding of Yunze and his father, and he has nothing to complain about himself. As for Jinxi, as long as he doesn''t divorce, he believes that sooner or later, the two people will be able to clear up their differences. ¡­¡­ Meng Yi takes an apple and peels it in circles. The speed is stable, and the apple skin is basically the same and thin. The "buzzing" vibration of the mobile phone came from one side. Meng Yi looked indifferently at the incoming call displayed on the mobile phone on the tea table, put down the apple and fruit knife, picked up the mobile phone and put it in his ear "The firewall of the institute cannot be unlocked." Zheng Hao''s dignified voice came over the phone. "The other party said that this method is very similar to the firewall of the ink palace database. Although it is different, the defensive and anti tracking methods are the same." "Ink palace?!" Meng Yi first questioned and then rejected, "impossible." "I don''t think it''s possible. How can Mo palace set up a firewall for Li Yunze?" The other party frowned, "if Mo Gong is involved, he will only want to get that research more." "However, it''s strange to say that the Mo palace has been active in Los Angeles for a while. Why has it recently..." Meng Yi listened to the voice on the phone, leaned slowly on the sofa and looked ahead. "I also doubt it. I heard that Shi Shaoqin has often been in the United States recently?" "They go relatively frequently, but no one knows what they are doing." Meng Yi didn''t answer. After a while, he said, "no matter how powerful the firewall is, there are loopholes. If one person can''t find it, find several people to break it." "Good!" The other party answered and hung up. Meng Yi puts down his mobile phone and gradually frowns. The closer the firewall of al Research Institute is set up, the less you want to be conquered. Since the beginning, he has been so rigorous. Apart from Li Yunhao''s research, he really can''t imagine what can make Li Yunze so guard against. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze and he Yining returned to the villa after eating from the Li family and went directly to the underground research room "Break this down..." Li Yunze handed a pink blue reagent tube to he Yining. He Yining took over and turned to the decomposition machine. Two people cooperate with each other. Many times they don''t need words. Time revolved round and round under the second hand. When the last medicine tube was put into the machine, Li Yunze took off his mask and raised his eyebrows. "With you, I feel that I can spare a lot of time..." Li Yunze hugged why he would rather pull to himself. "Yining, you have the same complete ''muscle reaction'' as a part of my body." "Are you so boastful?" Why Ning zhe smiled and looked at the time, "go up?" Li Yunze nodded, let go of he Yining, left the laboratory together, and waited for the decomposition results tomorrow before proceeding to the next step. After they went upstairs, they washed and rinsed. It was almost one o''clock in the morning. The next day, both of them had to go to the hospital. Why did Li Yunze have a caesarean section in the morning? Li Yunze couldn''t bear that she was too tired. After kissing her, he hugged her and fell asleep The next day, early in the morning, the dawn rendered the East. Li Yunze sent why Ning to Shuya first, and then went to Huakang. Then he went to al Institute and held a meeting. The content is simple and direct, and the personnel who will enter the final core research will be selected from this personnel. In addition to the people who have decided to enter the core at the beginning, the rest are a little nervous and excited. Everyone hopes to finally enter the core research. After a busy day, it was more than three o''clock in the afternoon when I was free. Li Yunze thought of what the prison guard said at dinner yesterday and drove directly to the prison Chapter 1527 "Li Shao, here you are." The prison guard who reported yesterday slept in the dormitory after work. Thinking that Li Yunze would come today, he has been waiting. Li Yunze nodded and, under the guidance of the prison guard, went to see the video of Qu Weiwei and sister-in-law Feng receiving guests. "I said I wouldn''t let visitors, but..." the prison guard looked at Li Yunze. "It''s estimated that the director sympathized with the mother. After seeing her waiting back and forth for so many days, he agreed." Li Yunze didn''t speak. Listening to the conversation between sister-in-law Feng and Qu Weiwei, Li Yunze took advantage of the situation and paid attention to Qu Weiwei''s expression. "This video looks nothing special..." Li Yunze looked sideways at the prison guard. Before he finished, he immediately swallowed it back. Li Yunze took back his sight, watched the video back and forth several times, and finally determined that the problem was the attachment of the two pages of paper. What is more certain is that because of this, Qu Weiwei seemed to think of something, and then asked him to come to her by asking about him and Yining. Li Yunze turned off the surveillance video, and the prison guard said, "Li Shao..." "I''ll see Qu Weiwei." Li Yunze got up. "OK, I''ll arrange it." The prison guard answered and went out of the room with Li Yunze to the reception room specially used for special reception in the prison. Li Yunze overlapped his legs, and his white and slender fingers tapped gently on the table. When the "clang" sound of opening the door came, Li Yunze raised his slightly drooping eyes in time and saw the female prison guard bring Qu Weiwei in handcuffs. When Qu Weiwei saw Li Yunze, there was a shallow smile in her mouth. That smile was full of the strangeness of complacency. Sitting down opposite Li Yunze, Qu Weiwei obviously looked tired but showed an arrogance, "how can she be in the mood to see me today?" "Isn''t that what you want?" Li Yunze spoke coldly. Qu Weiwei smiled at Li Yunze''s line of sight, "indeed." Li Yunze didn''t speak again, and Qu Weiwei didn''t say either. The two people just "looked at each other", as if they felt that who spoke first and who lost. I don''t know how long it took for Qu Weiwei to lose Compared with patience, how many people can compare with Li Yunze? After all, people who can operate in a high concentration for more than ten hours are easy to collapse without extraordinary patience. "I don''t want to ask why I brought you here?" Qu Weiwei said with a smile. Li Yunze smiled. The smile was calm and didn''t have much emotion. "I saw the video of you meeting sister-in-law Feng. Although I don''t know what it is, I can probably guess that it''s because of the attachment of those two pages of paper." "Yes," Qu Weiwei didn''t detour. After all, she drew Li Yunze for this, "do you know what those two pages are?" Li Yunze narrowed his eyes and paused for a few seconds before saying, "if there is no accident, it should be the manuscript studied by big brother that year." Qu Weiwei was stunned. She didn''t expect Li Yunze to guess. I didn''t expect Li Yunze to say it calmly "Qu Weiwei, let me continue to guess." Li Yunze sniffed in his nose, "then, would you say that you took those two pages from Yining, and she indirectly caused my eldest brother''s death?" Qu Weiwei''s face became more ugly. She even looked at Li Yunze with disbelief and said such things calmly. She knows what kind of existence Li Yunhao has for Li Yunze. That''s worship under belief. How can Li Yunze be indifferent?! "Your purpose is to make it difficult for Yining and me, isn''t it?" Li Yunze sneered, "I thought you could get some reflection here, but you are still so unwilling..." "Li Yunze, why would you rather do this? Don''t you have any idea?" Weiwei asked, gnashing her teeth. "I already know about it." Li Yunze''s eyes gradually deepened. "It was uncle he''s mistake at the beginning. Although I also have resentment, I can''t let Yining and I come together. I don''t want to create the tragedy of the next generation because of the things of the previous generation..." Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze and suddenly laughed. Then she laughed and laughed wantonly. Li Yunze wrung his eyebrows and felt disgust for Qu Weiwei''s crazy appearance. After laughing for a while, Qu Weiwei finally stopped laughing and looked at Li Yunze''s line of sight, full of sadness under sympathy "So, what Tianshu do you think it is? You guessed it yourself? Why did you rather say it?" Qu Weiwei''s voice was full of treacherous breath because of her previous smile. "Do you think what he Yining wanted to ask you at the beginning, and he Tianshu and Meng Ya went after the car accident because he Tianshu inadvertently spread Li Yunhao''s research?" Qu Weiwei''s face was even more sarcastic. Li Yunze frowned slightly and didn''t answer. "Li Yunze, you are so sad." Qu Weiwei said with a sneer, "or do you want to be with he Yining, so you will choose to escape the truth?" "Is it the truth or the means of retaliation?" Li Yunze hissed coldly. Qu Weiwei smiled, picked her eyebrows and said, "is it the truth? I think you can find he Yining and ask what happened at the beginning..." her eyes gradually became gloomy. "At the beginning, when he Yining came to you, she brought back Li Yunhao''s calculus paper, at least five or six." Li Yunze''s face changed slightly. In that year, he really lost six. However, there seems to be less of the lost six, so the other party sees that the research can be used to convert to the poison sample, but there is no way to turn what they see into the research In the final analysis, it is because there are two or three cards missing under the key circumstances. "Li Yunze, I''m not afraid to tell you that I took two pieces of paper to make you misunderstand why Ning." Qu Weiwei said coldly, "speaking of head, you still need to thank me. If it weren''t for me, I''m afraid the world would be in chaos, and the biggest sinners are Li Yunhao and your Li family, and why Yining!" With a bang, Li Yunze patted the table and stood up directly. The chairs were overturned because of too much strength. "Qu Weiwei, do you think I will believe you?" Li Yunze sneered, "or when I know clearly that you don''t want Yining to feel better or even curse us..." Qu Weiwei was unmoved and just looked up at Li Yunze. "If you don''t believe it, why are you so angry?" Li Yunze''s eyes suddenly gathered, and something was flowing in his heart, but he was hard pressed. "Li Yunze," Qu Weiwei said gently, "no matter what I said is true or not, when the seeds of doubt take root in your heart, people will become cranky..." She smiled, smiling strangely and coldly. "Now, the best way is to let why rather confront me. In this way, who is true and who is false, understand, understand... Wouldn''t it be good?" Chapter 1528 He Yining held a cup of freshly brewed coffee in his hand. He didn''t drink a sip from hot to cold. "Dr. he..." Dr. Liu shouted curiously, "what''s the matter with you? You''re in a trance!" "Huh?!" Why should Ning suddenly return to his mind? He almost spilled coffee on himself because he acted too much. "I see you''re fine in the morning. Why are you always in a daze now?" Dr. Liu sat down while doing his work, then smiled and said, "although it''s a young man, you should also restrain yourself." "..." he Yining immediately understood what Dr. Liu was saying. He couldn''t help but make a little embarrassed "ha ha", and didn''t know how to answer. This kind of thing, you explain, is a cover up, do not explain is to admit. So, no matter what the facts are, you can just bear it... Who makes you have a man around you who will look up at you?! He Yining put down his coffee and got up to go to the bathroom for repair. She just didn''t know what was wrong with herself. She just felt something inexplicably, but she didn''t know what was flowing in her heart. That feeling seems to be uneasy, and it seems that something is going to happen He Yining looked at himself in the mirror and thought it might be that he was too happy recently and worried about gain and loss. "Dr. he, someone is looking for..." a nurse''s voice came from outside. Why should I rather answer the voice, hurried to tidy up my thoughts and went out of the washroom. As soon as I went out, I saw Fang Xiran standing there with heroic spirit. Why should I rather have a headache. Fang Xiran looked up and down at he Yining in the circle. He looked like he Yining in a white coat. He was obviously capable when he first met that day. "Do you have time for a drink?" Fang Xiran spoke directly. "I''m sorry, if you''re here, please register." He Yining said indifferently, "if it''s a private matter, you can wait for me to get off work." "I registered..." Fang Xiran raised the registration form in his hand, "I guess you will refuse in this way." Why Ning tightened her eyebrows slightly and heard a lot about Fang Xiran from Fang Zihan. It''s just that she is young and has authority and ability in the army where men can get together! Just from the registration list, why would you rather feel that the news of Fang Zihan, the paparazzi, is true and reliable this time. He Yining turned back to the office, and Fang Xiran followed in. Dr. Liu was just about to leave. "Dr. he, I''ll go to the clinic." "OK." Why would you rather sit down and signal Fang Xiran to sit down, "where is it uncomfortable?" "Heart!" He Yining was indifferent. "I''m in obstetrics and Gynecology, not cardiothoracic and pulmonary department." "I was going to see Li Yunze, but he wasn''t there!" "Then it''s no use coming to me." Why not change your face. Fang Xilan looked at he Yining and said with a smile, "he Yining, do you think I''m not your opponent at all, or do you believe Li Yunze too much, so you can ignore me to this extent at the moment?" Why Ning said faintly: "first of all, I believe in Li Yunze. Therefore, there will be no second..." Because I believe in Li Yunze, there will be no so-called "rival in love"! "He Yining, you are so confident." Fang Xiran is a little annoyed. No matter what, the environment where she grew up has always been superior. When has she been so despised?! "You''re wrong," he Yining shook his head. "I''m not confident. I have confidence in Li Yunze." Fang Xi ran snorted coldly, "I''m afraid you''ll end up in a cocoon because of your confidence." When the words fell, Fang Xi ran got up and wanted to leave When the talent arrived at the door, he saw Jin shaosi standing outside the office with his pocket in one hand and couldn''t help tightening his eyebrows slightly. Jin shaosi didn''t say anything. He glanced at Fang Xi indifferently, and then turned sideways from her to enter Fang Xiran''s body was slightly touched. Suddenly, there was a vague feeling of falling to the ground in his heart. That feeling made her angry, at least a lot more than the anger in the face of he Yining. "Jin shaosi!" A cry of Joy came out. Jin shaosi indifferently stopped, turned his head, and looked coldly across Fang Xiran. "This is a hospital. I don''t understand in a low voice?" "..." Fang Xiran''s angry voice was choked by Jin shaosi''s sentence and almost didn''t recite it. Mr. Jin ignored Fang Xiran and just went in, "are you free in the evening?" "Huh?" Why should I rather be quiet? I heard a voice and looked at it with a sidelong glance. "I think I''ll go back in a few days. If I''m free in the evening, let''s have dinner together!" He Yining knew that Jin shaosi would return to Brunei in a few days. Then he would go abroad to talk about some things. At the same time, he stopped by to see one by one. "OK." Why should I rather answer and look at the time, "I''ll be off work in a while." "Well, I''ll wait for you in the car." He Yining nodded and watched Jin shaosi leave with guilt in his eyes. Taking back his sight, he Yining took his mobile phone and dialed Li Yunze However, there was no waiting for the bell, and no one answered. He Yining thought Li Yunze was busy with the Research Institute, so he simply sent him a text message: ACE shouted for dinner. He was about to leave Los Angeles, so I agreed and went home after dinner. Looking at the success of sending, why Ning felt the unspeakable uneasiness in his heart, which filled his heart again ¡­¡­ Jin shaosi walked to the parking lot. Fang Xiran followed him behind him, but he didn''t care. "Jin shaosi, are you so interesting?" Fang Xiran said with a sudden sneer, "if you like it, go after it. If you can''t catch it, try to stay with you... Do you think you''re noble?" Jin shaosi sighed softly, turned and looked at Fang Xiran, "you have to embarrass yourself to prove that you have loved?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Jin shaosi coldly withdrew his sight and opened the door. He just stopped when he wanted to get on the bus. His sight fell in front and said, "in fact, you just feel suitable for Li Yunze, and it''s not necessary for him. Why trample on your pride?!" Without giving Fang Xiran a chance to respond, Jin shaosi got into the car. Fang Xi ran was so angry that he gnashed his teeth. It felt as if he had been analyzed and had no secrets. This feeling is very bad for Fang Xiran. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles prison. Qu Weiwei and Li Yunze confronted each other. Neither of them gave in, as if they wanted to let their faith defeat each other. Li Yunze stared at Qu Weiwei with a pair of eyes. If his eyes were blades, at the moment, he could kill her directly. Qu Weiwei saw the anger and resistance pouring out from the bottom of Li Yunze''s eyes. She sniffed in her nose and said slowly, "why, Li Yunze, don''t you dare?" "You dare not let why Ning confront me," Qu Weiwei smiled, cold and treacherous, "because you''re afraid, you''re really afraid of her..." Chapter 1529 "Qu Weiwei, even if I don''t bring Yining to confront, or even if it''s her..." Li Yunze said with clenched teeth, "your purpose is to make us feel bad?" "Yes, that''s my purpose. I''ve never covered it up..." Qu Weiwei continued to smile. "Li Yunze, I''m waiting for you to suffer. I''m waiting for why I''m suffering. I''m waiting for you two to suffer with me, ha ha ha!" Li Yunze''s eyebrows trembled because of anger or Qu Weiwei''s sharp smile at the moment. He clenched his hand slightly, and his handsome face kept calm. "Li Yunze, even if you want to love, you can act as if nothing has happened and you can continue to be with her, but your heart will suffer..." "Because you are ashamed of Li Yunhao!" Qu Weiwei was just like crazy. She stared at Li Yunze and said with gnashing teeth: "think about it. Every day you have to face the feelings of he Yining and bear the guilt of your brother''s death... Ha ha, Li Yunze, isn''t it great?" "Oh, yes!" Qu Weiwei seemed to think of something, "what do you think she would do if he Yining knew about it? She would hate to kill herself..." "No, maybe she already knows. She just deceives herself... Hahaha!" Qu Weiwei thought of this and looked at Li Yunze''s vision full of ghosts, but with a smile, which made people shudder, "why do you love you so much? It''s really possible to be with you!" "Don''t say it first. It''s not necessarily Yining." Li Yunze''s eyes became more and more heavy, "even if... You seem to ignore a situation, that is, Yining and I will face this matter together!" "Face it together... Hahaha..." Qu Weiwei looked up and laughed, and the tears came out. It took a long time to stop laughing. She lowered her head slowly, and her eyes fell on Li Yunze, full of undisguised malice. "I know Yining. If she knows that everything is because of herself, she will suffer..." Qu Weiwei gnashed her teeth with resentment. "If she knows that you also know what happened, do you think she will continue to face it with you, or how?" Qu Weiwei''s eyes were shining with strange light. She didn''t tell Li Yunze why Yining would choose to hide it from Li Yunze if she knew what happened that year Because he Yining loves Li Yunze like that and loves her again with all her life. He Yining will only make himself miserable, nor will he tell Li Yunze to make him miserable If, if he Yining knew what happened in those years and now Li Yunze knows, it will be... Very wonderful! She looks forward to Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze coldly, "Li Yunze, thanks to he Yining, I also know you." She smiled again, "I know exactly where Li Yunhao is in your heart..." "One side is a lover, the other is a dead brother..." Qu Weiwei smiled strangely. "Although your lover didn''t personally, he directly caused Li Yunhao''s pain and death, and even your mother... You sleep with such people, and even have a daughter. Won''t you have nightmares?!" "Shut up!" Li Yunze''s face was a little shocked. "Qu Weiwei, do you think I''ll believe what you said and question Yining? You''re wrong, I won''t... so, just hold the ''dream'' you think and continue!" Li Yunze coldly withdrew his sight and then turned out of the reception room. In addition to being led by Qu Weiwei at the beginning of his thoughts, when he came to the back, he just sneered. Qu Weiwei looked at Li Yunze''s transformation in amazement and shouted sharply at his back: "Li Yunze, you will doubt, I''ll wait... Waiting for you and why would you rather not die well, painful life is better than death..." The sound of the iron door closing came from behind. Li Yunze stood in the yard outside the prison and let the sunset hit him The accompanying prison guard didn''t dare to breathe, but looked at Li Yunze''s never dark face and swallowed it. "Take good care of her," said Li Yunze, gnashing his teeth. "I don''t like her having so much energy to dream!" The word "dream" was the last to squeeze out the gap between the teeth The feeling of death suddenly made the prison guard feel a little cold around, "I understand." Li Yunze left the prison, sat in the car, holding the steering wheel, gradually tightened and made a ''quack'' sound He looked ahead and didn''t know what to look at. After a long time, he loosened his hand and leaned against the car seat. Slowly close your eyes. All along, things that haven''t been figured out seem to be clear. Why did Yining suddenly escape the day before getting the license, why did he leave him, and even uneasily afraid that he would steal one by one The Adam''s apple rolled up and down hard, and Li Yunze''s face gradually filled with pain. That kind of pain, how can I bear it, and I can''t bear it ¡­¡­ "What''s the matter?" Jin shaosi looked at he Yining and frowned slightly, "I''ve always seen you in a trance." He Yining returned to his senses and shook his head after being stunned. "I don''t know why, but I just feel a little uncomfortable." After a pause, she pulled the corners of her mouth, "it''s estimated that she hasn''t had a good rest recently." Jin shaosi looked at he Yining and looked dim. He Yining said that he didn''t rest well because he began to prepare for research, but in Jin shaosi''s eyes, it was a bitter critical blow. "I''ll take you back!" Mr. Jin looked at the time and said, "rest early." "Yes." Why should Ning answer, subconsciously looked at the mobile phone, and there was no reply from Li Yunze. Are you still busy at the Institute?! Jin shaosi sent why Yining to the villa. Looking at the house, it was clear that the appearance was only one of the villas in the villa area, but at this moment, he was extremely depressed because he lived with Li Yunze. "I''m back." Why would you rather go to the corner of your mouth. Jin shaosi raised a faint radian on his lips, nodded and looked at why he Ning got off the bus. After entering the villa, the smile at the corners of his mouth turned into self mockery He Yining looked at the car in the yard, slightly frowned and whispered, "did you come back or didn''t drive this car?" Look at the villa without lights. Why did Ning turn his mouth? While taking out his mobile phone to dial Li Yunze''s phone, he pressed the password lock and pushed the door in A faint vibration buzzer came. Why Ning was stunned and felt a shadow passing by. Then, the man had been pressed on the door Lips, homeopathic SEALED! Chapter 1530 "Oh" came, why should I rather be hit by such a sudden force against the door, with some pain from chromium behind. If it wasn''t for the smell of invasion, which was familiar to her even in her dream, I''m afraid she thought there was a thief at home! The fierce kiss with a flame that can not be ignored, as soon as it comes up, it seems to devour everything. He Yining did not resist Li Yunze, but gently fanned his lower eyelashes in the dark, adapted to the dark line of sight, and looked at his face close at hand, slightly puzzled. "Well..." Why should Ning suddenly return to her senses? Because of Li Yunze''s rudeness, she was hurt a little. However, Li Yunze seemed not to find it, and continued his attack under emotional depression Xu is so familiar with each other that he can always make the fastest and most direct response under any circumstances. Soon, he Yining has integrated into Li Yunze''s world. While guessing each other''s feelings in each other''s emotions, he suppresses his thoughts gradually spreading At night, there was a dark haze. The moonlight was obscured by the clouds, and clothes were scattered from the door to the bedroom. The air in the house is rendered with a strange ambiguous atmosphere, which is obviously happy, but it is heavy. He Yining thought about what had happened while bearing Li Yunze''s request She looked at Li Yunze''s tightly locked eyebrows and wanted to ask several times, but she didn''t know what was in her heart. The words clearly came to her mouth, but she couldn''t make a sound. I don''t know how long later, Li Yunze finally let go of he Yining. The two did not move or speak, so they hugged, as if to petrify. "Yining..." "Li Yunze!" Almost at the same time, as if there was telepathy, they opened their mouth and shouted to each other. After a few seconds of silence, Li Yunze closed his eyes and said, "you said..." "What''s the matter with you?" Why Ning Zhe''s mouth, feeling depressed, asked, "I feel you have something on your mind." "Yes." Li Yunze answered, slightly wrinkling his eyebrows. After he Yining asked "what''s the matter", he slowly opened his mouth, "there are some problems in the research, and I''m a little anxious..." Hearing him say so, he Yining has no doubt. After all, this research is about Yunhao''s brother. How could she not know the importance of brother Yunhao to Li Yunze? That''s why she didn''t dare to say what happened, did she?! "I''ll go down and see yesterday''s decomposition results..." he Yining raised his hand and looked at the time, gently opened his mouth, "it''ll be 24 hours in a while." Those decompositions need to observe the results of one day before proceeding to the next step. If the time exceeds 25 hours, the results will be inaccurate and there can be basically no big error. Li Yunze didn''t open his eyes. His mind was in a mess. "Li Yunze..." Seeing that Li Yunze didn''t speak, why should he rather shout softly. Li Yunze took a breath and slowly opened his eyes. "Wash it first, let''s go and have a look." He got up and got out of bed. When he Yining got up, he grabbed her "Li Yunze?!" Why Ning hurriedly hooked Li Yunze''s neck. Li Yunze held her and turned to the bathroom. "I''m sorry... I didn''t control my mood." Why is Ning Xin suddenly astringent and pulled at the corners of his mouth, "I''m fine." Li Yunze put down he Yining and gave her bath water, while he washed himself under the shower. He Yining looked at Li Yunze and his eyes gradually blurred I feel a little uneasy in the afternoon. In the evening, when I have dinner with ACE, the feeling becomes stronger. She had just suffered the siege strategy from Li Yunze. She didn''t have time to think about it, but at the moment, the feeling in the air that seemed to burst people''s hearts always made her feel that something had happened. Or... Will happen. ¡­¡­ Wang Xia found that Qu Weiwei was very strange today, especially after receiving guests in the afternoon. "Hey, who did you see this afternoon?" Wang Xia deliberately asked, "why didn''t something come in?" Qu Weiwei lay in bed, her eyes didn''t open, but said coldly, "do you think something will come in when you see your enemy?" A rhetorical question dispelled Wang Xia''s doubts. When she was having dinner last night, she heard that the person Qu Weiwei met today was very influential. She seemed to have been beaten, and then covered up something with a sharp smile. Wang Xia looked at Qu Weiwei, snorted, lifted the quilt and went to bed However, through the occasional flash of the searchlight outside, Wang Xia could see the strange smile on Qu Weiwei''s mouth, which was permeated with people''s breath. Qu Weiwei was very happy. She didn''t expect that her original curse would become true. With Li Yunhao''s death between Li Yunze and he Yining, she wants to see how happy they are ¡­¡­ Why would you rather sleep until midnight? Your calf suddenly cramped and then woke up. The original chaotic thoughts were instantly clear because of the pain caused by cramps. She subconsciously clenched her teeth to prevent her voice from overflowing. She was afraid to make Li Yunze sleep. But turn your head. Where is the figure of Li Yunze next to you?! The sound of "Hoo Hoo" came through with the smell of ghosts. Why would you rather look out of the window and be upset about the sudden strong wind. He got up, took his cardigan and put it on. Why would he rather go out of the bedroom. Walking to the fence on the second floor, before walking up and down the stairs, I saw Li Yunze standing in front of the French window with a lit cigarette in his hand. The darkness shrouded his figure, and the cigarette butts shining slightly with fire, just like Li Yunze''s feeling at the moment, showed the sadness under loneliness. Sad Why Ning suddenly wrung her eyebrows? Why did she feel that Li Yunze was shrouded in sorrow at the moment?! Feeling someone looking at him, Li Yunze slowly turned around, raised his eyes and looked at he Yining. "Why are you awake?" Li Yunze frowned slightly and put his cigarette butts out of the ashtray. He Yining opened his mouth, collected his uneasiness and went downstairs. "Without you around, I feel like I''m missing something... I wake up." Li Yunze hugged he Yining and his eyes were deep in the dark. "I just went to see the cultivated bacteria. Some couldn''t sleep. I didn''t go up for fear of disturbing you." "Li Yunze, are you under a lot of pressure?" He Yining raised her eyes. Apart from this, she didn''t know how to explain Li Yunze''s abnormality today. Li Yunze didn''t speak, but looked at him with deep eyes. "You''re so good. Brother Yunhao can do it, and you can do it..." he Yining''s face was completely convinced. Because, for her, this is not only Li Yunze''s dream, but also that they may really break through all barriers! Chapter 1531 Li Yunze looked at he Yining quietly. In the house without moonlight, there was only the faint light reflected by the night light outside the villa But the two people are too familiar with each other. Even under such visibility, they still get the information they want to convey at the first time. Li Yunze pressed why Ning into his arms, and the smoke in his other hand was slowly filled with curling smoke. It won''t be Yining Not her! Li Yunze closed his eyes, bowed his head and kissed him at the top of his hair. "Go to bed early. You''ll be busy tomorrow." Li Yunze spoke softly. "Yes." Why should I rather answer the voice and go upstairs with Li Yunze. In the next two days, Li Yunze became very busy. Whether it was private research, Huakang hospital or al Research Institute, he had to arrange all his time properly, so as to confuse outsiders and not let any place fall behind. ¡­¡­ "This is a gift Li Yunze bought one by one." He Yining handed the handbag to Jin shaosi. Jin shaosi took it, glanced lightly and handed it to Lu fan, "didn''t you go to work today?" "Now that one by one is gone, I also start to shift..." he Yining said, "however, it is estimated that President Ma has explained, so I usually seldom have a big night for me. Today is a big night for two doctors in the Department." "Can the body eat it?" Jin shaosi frowned slightly. Why Ning smiled and strolled in the vineyard with Jin shaosi, "I''m special enough. Generally, the shift is a small night, and occasionally a big night doesn''t matter." She looked ahead, and there were faint signs of germination on the grapevine. "Yining, you were in a trance when you had dinner last night. Why do you look worse today?" Jin shaosi''s eyes are getting darker and deeper. He doesn''t think it''s due to poor rest. Why Ning glanced at him, smiled, shook his head and said, "I''m fine. I guess it''s because my dream has come true. I''ll worry about gain and loss!" Jin shaosi stopped and narrowed his eyes slightly, "Yining, you can''t deceive yourself with such a lie, can you?!" He Yining also stopped his steps and smiled at the corners of his mouth. He didn''t say anything. "You''re going to the airport later. Do you still worry about it?" He Ning smiled. When he looked at Mr. Jin, he had gathered the fatigue in his subconscious mind and said with a smile, "Ann, I''m not just worried about that." Hearing why Yining said so, Jin shaosi didn''t doubt anything. After all, the happier Yining and Li Yunze are now, the happier they are For Yining, the heavier the burden, the deeper the guilt. Therefore, it leads to mental burden, as if it was the past. "Always find a way to alleviate..." Jin shaosi said with meaning. He Yining smiled and nodded, "I will, after all... I have worked hard for so many years to be with Li Yunze, and even I am willing to face it." Speaking of the back, he Yining looked obviously dignified, but he soon converged again. Jin shaosi looked at he Yining painfully, came forward and held her in his arms Why Ning subconsciously wanted to struggle, but was stopped by Jin shaosi. "Yining, you must be happier when I''m away." Jin shaosi''s eyes were deep. "I''m afraid I''ll deal with things outside. I''m not at ease." "I will..." he Yining didn''t move. "I''ll try." "Yes!" Jin shaosi answered softly and let go of he Yining. At this moment, he didn''t think that there was a problem when he just left Los Angeles ¡­¡­ The sound of "clatter" came, and the sound of broken glass made the whole research room look at each other. Looking at the cloud, the man frowned slightly and didn''t see it. "The ingredients are wrong..." Li Yunze turned around, glanced at the researchers and said the ingredients. Everyone can''t see any inappropriate emotion from his face. Only he knows that he just missed because he was absent-minded. "Li Shao, that core project..." When Li Yunze wanted to leave the Institute, Wang Yueqiang, who was expected to enter the core research, asked hesitantly. Li Yunze took a look at Wang Yueqiang, "the personnel will not be determined until next month. Anyone is possible and anyone is impossible." The ambiguous answer made Wang Yueqiang frown, but he was a smart man. He knew that the competition was very big this time, "I will work hard." "Yes." Li Yunze answered and stepped away. Sitting in the car, the mobile phone rang Li Yunze looked at it and then heard Xiao Qiang''s voice. "Li Shao, Jason does have two attachments, which have been led back, but I don''t know if there is any spread..." Li Yunze''s eyes sank. This time, no matter whether Qu Weiwei deliberately spread the two papers or had any thoughts, he must first make sure that the content did not spread. "From the path, the other party should only have opened the preview without downloading or reprinting." Xiao Qiang paused and said, "however, you''d better let the boy of Mo palace make sure." "Yes." Li Yunze answered and hung up. The voice of the arrival of the email came from the mobile phone. Li Yunze opened it and it was sent by Xiao Qiang. There were two manuscripts of the eldest brother Seeing these two manuscripts, Li Yunze''s heart contracted uncontrollably. The sharp feeling made it difficult for him to breathe. When a phone came in, Li Yunze looked at the word "silly Ning" flashing on the mobile phone screen. At this moment, his eyes burst out with horror that he didn''t dare to face. Then came the voice of he Yining, "it''s going to be a big night tonight. I''ll go to the hospital after I eat a little on the street." "I''m just finished here. I''ll pick you up." Li Yunze said. "Your voice sounds very tired," he Yining said in silence. He had an unspeakable feeling that he didn''t want to see Li Yunze at the moment. "I can go by myself." "I''ll pick you up and have dinner together. I''ll take you to Shuya." Li Yunze has started the car. Why should I rather smile at the corner of my mouth and gently respond to the sound. Because it is not the peak period, the road from Li Yunze to the vineyard is not the urban area, so it will arrive soon. He Yining waited at the door and looked at Li Yunze''s car approaching. The feeling of psychological depression was about to burst his chest. From that night on, she felt more and more that Li Yunze had something in mind Inexplicably, she moved closer to brother Yunhao''s affairs without control. She didn''t know whether she was too trembling or thinking too much, so she was stunned. The air pressure in the car was treacherous. It was not just why he was uncomfortable. At the moment, Li Yunze also had an unspeakable feeling. "Is there something you want to say?" In the end, why should I speak rather. Chapter 1532 With a squeak, the car suddenly stopped while he Yining said something. There is a long way to the vineyard in the suburbs. At the moment, the car is parked on the road. There are no cars in front of and behind. It looks particularly empty The smell in the car gradually becomes treacherous, as if to challenge people''s limits. A little pressure makes people breathe more urgent. Why Ning slightly clenched her hand? Sometimes a woman''s sixth sense is really annoying. Li Yunze didn''t speak, and he Yining didn''t have the courage to ask again. They were so stiff, as if, as long as this, everything could pass Suddenly. Li Yunze turned off the car, untied his seat belt, turned his head and opened the door without any stop. He Yining''s nose was so sour that she got out of the car In this way, they are separated by a car, but for he Yining at the moment, the distance of a car has become an insurmountable gap. Some things, should come, will always come. No matter how you dodge and feel lucky, it will tear everything apart with its devil''s claws and make everyone bloody. "Li Yunze..." Why rather shout a name, there is no way to say a word again. Li Yunze seemed to lean weakly against the car. He closed his eyes painfully. It seemed that someone lit a fire in his brain and kept burning his nerves. He Yining''s eyes became more and more red. She bit her lower lip and held the car with her hand. She couldn''t help shaking her fist. "If you want to ask, just ask! What do you want to say..." She tilted her head, suppressed the almost uncontrollable sadness a little, and then gritted her teeth and continued, "if you have anything you want to say, just say it! What are you doing now?" The last voice, hoarse and outrageous He Yining told himself that you should be strong in the face. At least, you have stolen some time of happiness. All things in the world have cause and effect. No one can escape the footsteps of reincarnation! Li Yunze''s eyes are scarlet. He doesn''t want to ask. He doesn''t want Qu Weiwei to succeed However, there are some things that really can''t pass! ''shua ''opened his eyes, and Li Yunze''s eyes fell in front of him. After a few seconds, he turned around, looked up at why Yining''s foggy eyes, gritted his teeth and asked, "Yining, what happened in those years?" Why Ning''s lips trembled and didn''t speak. "I guess you fled the day before and the day before I got my license because you knew that your brother''s death might have something to do with uncle he!" Li Yunze clenched his teeth and said word by word with great strength, "tell me now, is my big brother only related to uncle he, not you, not at all Li Yunze asked in the end, but at this moment, his heart was more resistant than anyone. He looked at he Yining and hoped for her veto answer. Even if it''s cheating him, even if it''s because you love him, cheat him... It''s OK! Yining, please! Just for me, even if it is really related to you, please lie to me! He Yining looked at such Li Yunze, tears, and finally could not be carried by the eyes... Hot sliding. For a while, the wind blew on my face and turned the hot into a cold touch, which suddenly cooled to my heart. Why would you rather suck your nose and your body trembled. Her lips kept moving, but when she got to her mouth, it was only a few words, or even one word to answer, but she couldn''t say it. She doesn''t know how Li Yunze knows. At the moment, she just knows clearly It''s all over! All good dreams should be over! Why rather closed his eyes, big tears were squeezed out of his eyes, full of sadness. "You misunderstood..." why is Ning''s voice dry and dumb like a dull saw pulling on an iron pipe? She opened her eyes, looked at Li Yunze and choked, "it''s not Dad, it''s me from beginning to end!" Li yunzejun''s face was instantly cracked with pain, and his eyes were completely resistant, "how could it be you, not you!" "It''s me -" Why Ning roared out of collapse and stepped back in despair. His hands were like drowning, shaking back and forth trying to grasp the driftwood. "I went to see you that day. Because you weren''t there, I wanted to go to brother Yunhao and ask where you went," he Yining said while crying, "However, I went to the study to find him, and he wasn''t there. I stayed for a while. Who knows that the letters and messy things to be sent to you were scattered on the table and the ground, and I don''t know how to bring back the calculus manuscript studied by Brother Yun Hao..." He Yining kept sobbing. "Later, I found out that I didn''t know it was the manuscript of research. I thought it was used by my father to study wine, so I took it and put it with him..." He Yining said, already sobbing, "everything is me. If I hadn''t taken brother Yunhao''s research away, no father would have inadvertently given things to others, resulting in everything later... I am!" "Er..." Li Yunze''s eyes were scarlet as if he were going crazy. He looked at he Yining and asked, "he Yining, you lied to me so many times from childhood to adulthood. Why don''t you continue to lie to me this time..." "What I don''t want to say, what I don''t want to say..." why Ning cried, and his voice was hoarse to despair, "but you already know how I can cheat you and myself!" A bang came again, followed by a strange click. He Yining only felt that her heart stopped beating for a moment because of the sound. Suddenly, she saw something dazzling across her eyes. "Yining, we finally got together from childhood to childhood..." Li Yunze said, gritting his teeth, and there was a layer of fog in his eyes. "I think, even if uncle he had something to do with that year, but he has died, I shouldn''t punish ourselves for the previous things." He tilted his head and smiled at himself with a sharp and pathetic smile, "but it''s you... Why you?!" Li Yunze was on the verge of collapse. "That''s my big brother. You know how painful I was when he committed suicide in front of me and Jinxi... With such a thing in the middle, how can you let me continue with you..." "Li Yunze, your hand..." At the moment, he Yining couldn''t care what Li Yunze said. He just stared at Li Yunze''s left hand. Because of his great strength, he broke the wiper and scratched his hand. Li Yunze is a doctor who can do many precision operations. How can his hand shed so much blood Chapter 1533 "I thought I was a man and had more responsibilities than Jinxi. Therefore, when I thought it was uncle he, I thought, because of love, we should not miss it again..." "But why did you end up?" Li Yunze''s voice was full of despair, "it doesn''t matter how you want me to cross and what you want me to do, so that I can die as a big brother. As long as there is love, we can continue!" "Li Yunze, your hand --" why should Ning roar like crazy, "let me see if your wound is deep, or you and I go to the hospital first!" "Whether he is deep or not!" Li Yunze shook his injured left hand, but looked at he Yining in despair. That kind of despair was full of sharp, as if possessed by magic. "Li Yunze, I don''t care how you hate me, even if you kill me..." he Yining approached Li Yunze again and saw him step back and cut off his feet. "Are you really not going to want your hand?" "Why are you?" Li Yunze smiled with self mockery. With that smile, he hesitated and felt uneasy. The injured left hand kept dripping blood, and Li Yunze felt no pain at the moment. How can such pain be more painful than that of the heart? Everything, all because of why Ning''s unintentional However, because of no intention, can he ignore the eldest brother and commit suicide in front of himself and Jinxi?! Why Ning was crying anxiously. She had no choice but to take out her mobile phone and call Gu Beichen. As soon as the phone was connected, why should Ning cry out, "Gu Beichen, Li Yunze''s hand was injured. He didn''t let me check or go to the hospital..." Gu Beichen frowned in an instant, "where are you?" After he Yining said his address, he listened to the "beep beep" hanging up sound from his mobile phone and cried. Gu Beichen came quickly and came with Jane mo. From a distance, they saw Li Yunze and he Yining as if they were "arguing", and they couldn''t help looking at each other one after another. "Li Yunze, do you want me to compensate you for my hand before you are willing to see..." Just as Gu Beichen and Jian Mo got off the bus, why should Ning scream sharply at Li Yunze. Before they could ask what had happened, they saw that Li Yunze''s left hand was red with fresh blood... They didn''t know what the wound looked like. Anyway, it looked very seeping. "Are you crazy?" Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze leaning fearlessly against the car, with a cold air on his cold, carved face. "If this is your way to deal with women, I really think highly of you." Then he looked at Jian Mo, "I''ll take Yunze to the hospital..." "I''ll accompany Yining." Jane Mo said quickly. "Waiting for me to drag you away?" Gu Beichen''s voice was indisputable. Li Yunze sneered at him Yining. He didn''t know whether he Yining was right or not. "He Yining, I''ve never seen such a vicious woman like you..." Then he turned coldly and got on Gu Beichen''s car. Just at that moment, no one knew. When he said that sentence, he stabbed himself in the heart! Why should I laugh at myself at the corners of my mouth? When I deviated from my face, my tears fell down as hard as a broken line. Jane Mo came forward and gently shook he Yining''s hand, trying to give her some comfort. He Yining looked at the leaving car and tried to restrain his grief. All he was reading in his heart were Li Yunze''s hands ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen directly brought Li Yunze back to Huakang. The wound was not deep and did not hurt the nerve, but it was not shallow. After sewing the needle, there was no way to take the scalpel in the near future. "Can''t you and Yining stop?" Gu Beichen twisted his eyebrows. "How can it be stable and start again?" Li Yunze''s mood had recovered a little. He looked at Gu Beichen and pulled down the corners of his mouth with self mockery. He didn''t speak. Gu Beichen''s ink pupil looked at Li Yunze deeply. Although he didn''t say it, he roughly guessed that it was probably related to Li Yunhao or Li Yunhao''s research. "Can you continue to study like this?" Gu Beichen said coldly, "Li Yunze, if you want the tragedy of that year to happen again, just toss." Li Yunze was silent and didn''t speak. In due time, Jane Mo sent why Ning to Shuya and rushed over. She first looked at Gu Beichen. Now they can roughly understand each other''s intentions. Li Yunze looked at Jian Mo and moved his mouth several times. If he wanted to ask, he never asked. Jane Mo naturally knew that Li Yunze wanted to ask how he Yining was, but he didn''t ask, and she didn''t take the initiative to say. When I''m leaving, I can say such ugly words. I''ll suffocate you right now. Go hard! Gu Beichen and Jian Mo left, leaving Li Yunze "alone" in the hospital. Anyway, his own territory will not be left unattended. Besides, he just hurt his left hand. There will be no problem with his actions In such a large VIP ward, there was a faint smell of potions. Li Yunze smelled them from childhood. Looking out at the already gray sky, Li Yunze''s dry eyes closed and opened again. Yining, how can we continue in this situation?! If all this is a misunderstanding, how good it would be Even if it has something to do with anyone, as long as it''s not you! Li Yunze flapped his eyes. In a person''s ward, he removed all the disguises he had just faced Gu Beichen, leaving only the sadness under pain. ¡­¡­ "Doctor he, what''s the matter with you? Your eyes are red..." the head nurse frowned slightly when he Yining saw his red and swollen eyes. Why rather pulled the corners of his mouth, smiled bitterly, didn''t say anything, just took an ice bag from the freezer and put it on his eyes. The head nurse didn''t ask much, but said, "if you don''t give birth at night, there''s nothing to do tonight. Why don''t you go to have a rest first, and I''ll call you when there''s something." "OK, thank you." He Yining said in a tired voice, turned and dragged his heavy body to the office. Tears burst out again in the deserted Office Why Ning hurriedly looked up and closed his eyes, trying to force back his tears. When I came to the window, why would I rather put my hand on the windowsill and look up at the few stars. "Li Yunze, why is our happiness always short so that I don''t have time to feel it well?" Why is Ning''s voice choking, "can''t you let me indulge in it for more time?" He smiled at the corner of his mouth and forced the tears back. Why would he rather laugh at himself. "I think maybe we can finish the research of brother Yunhao together, so... Maybe we can really relax and face each other." Why would you rather suck your nose? "But it''s only now. How should we continue? How should we continue the research..." Chapter 1534 Night, quiet overflow to the terrible, as if the sound of heartbeat, I can hear. Two hospitals, two offices and two people stood in front of the window and looked at the increasingly heavy night outside, as if at that moment, loneliness completely swallowed up the two people Li Yunze''s bandaged left hand hung on his side and his right hand held a mobile phone. The screen had already dimmed. A text message that had not been sent was covered by darkness. Why Ning''s eyes lose focus, and the lax pupils seem to melt all the dirt into the ink air, and then put themselves in it. They can''t get reincarnation forever When the eastern dawn tears the darkness and casts the warm light into the sky, no matter he Yining or Li Yunze, it seems that they can''t feel any warmth. Yes... Just a sinking heart. "Doctor he, haven''t you rested all night?" Dr. Liu came to take over and looked at why Ning Honghong''s eyes twisted his eyebrows. "You''re too dedicated. You didn''t have a baby last night. Why don''t you sleep?" "I''ve forgotten the time when I read a book, and it''s already dawn..." why would rather pull the corners of my mouth and deliberately rub my eyes, "I just wanted to go to the ophthalmology department to get an eye drops home." "You really spell." Doctor Liu shook his head, "do you still need to spell like this with Li Shao?" When it comes to Li Yunze, he Yining only feels that his heart suddenly hurts and seems empty. "He''s so good, I don''t want to be too bad." Dr. Liu couldn''t stand rolling his eyes. "So, sometimes bland is also a blessing." He Yining smiled. After signing the shift handover record, he didn''t say anything more. He said hello and left Shuya. The sunshine in the morning of early spring is full of hope, but why would you rather stand in the sunshine and find that there has never been darkness. Slowly raise your head and see the rising sun. In a few seconds, you will feel dizzy After closing his eyes, he Yining felt the Venus in front of him and adjusted his breathing, which eliminated the dizziness for a while. After swallowing, he Yining opened his eyes again. His eyes full of red blood were completely self mockery. Some things, can not think, as long as you think, she has some uncontrollable sadness. Although I clearly know that all this will come as long as it is pierced Why rather take a taxi back to the villa, looking at every corner, you can think of the happiness of Li Yunze during this period of time. Also because of these happiness, at the moment, why Ning''s heart is painful and can hardly breathe. When the mobile phone rings, why should I rather hurry to find it from my bag She knew it couldn''t be Li Yunze, but her eyes were out of control. When he saw that it was not Li Yunze, he Yining''s heart suddenly fell into the ice cellar. "Yan Yan..." why is Ning''s voice hoarse. "What''s going on?" Yan Miao asked, "when I came to work, I heard that Li Yunze''s hand was injured yesterday evening. What''s the situation?" Last night, she knew why she was in a hurry to see Li Yunze as soon as she got off work? He Yining weakly sat down on the lazy sofa next to the French window, lay on it, and watched the early morning sunshine sprinkle on the villa and cover her through the glass. "Yan Yan, I think some things can be ignored, but often you don''t know until things happen that you can''t..." why is Ning''s voice so dry and dumb. Yan Miao frowned and listened to why Yining, as if he had lost all his faith and hope for a moment, and gently called, "Yining..." He Yining looked at the sunshine and smiled gently, "Yan Yan, I''m fine." "But..." "We had a quarrel yesterday, and his hand was broken in front of me." he Yining''s voice seemed very calm. "He is a doctor. He has been holding a scalpel for most of a month. How precious his hand, you say?" Yan Miao frowned and felt why he was rather confused at the moment. "However, fortunately, it''s all right. It will recover in a month or two." He Ning smiled and looked back. "I haven''t had a rest all night. I''ll go to bed first." "OK." Yan Miao sighed, feeling very depressed. Yining''s happiness lies in Li Yunze. On the contrary, all her pain lies in him Clearly before the two people had arrived to get married, Yining ran away. Now Mingming two people have been very good, and they are making trouble again! Yanmiao suddenly thought, maybe... Yining and Li Yunze are not suitable, but they think that if there is love, they should be together! Yanmiao thought for a while. Finally, after the ward round, he went to find Li Yunze. Unfortunately, I threw myself into the air. "Where''s young Li?" Yan Miao asked. "Seems to have gone to the research institute?" "..." yanmiao twitched at the corner of his mouth, "isn''t his hand hurt?!" "Yes, I guess it''s because the operation can''t be done and it won''t affect the research drugs, so I''ll go to the research institute?!" The nurse felt that what she said was very reasonable and nodded to confirm the following. Yan Miao helped his forehead and murmured, "forget it, they know how to toss and toss, anyway." Then he turned around in the confused sight of the nurse, and continued to complain, "shit, I worry about them with a single dog myself, and I don''t know what evil I''ve done!" Just then, the elevator opened. When yanmiao went in, he almost bumped into the person who was about to come out "Walk without eyes?!" Yanmiao was in a bad mood and dumped him directly. When Huo Qishen heard this, he pointed to yanmiao, pointed to himself again, and finally gritted his teeth and said, "OK, sir, I met a female criminal today. I can bear it!" ¡­¡­ Time, a little bit in waiting, is like consuming life. He Yining doesn''t know when he fell asleep on the lazy sofa, but when he fell asleep, he curled up there like a baby hiding in his mother''s belly. There is a trace of coolness in the air. Why would you rather cry and wake up with the uneasy seclusion The sunrise has disappeared. In such a big villa, it is covered with gray color. The weak fan moved his eyes, why would he rather get up. But because he kept a posture for too long, his feet became numb, and the whole man fell back. The eyes became sour instantly, and the tears fell out of control. When a person''s mind can be expanded, the original fragile things can be expanded infinitely. He Yining sat on the lazy sofa and wept silently, but the corners of his mouth pulled an ugly smile, which was astringent and distressing. After a while, he Yining took a deep breath, wiped the tears off his face, took out his mobile phone, paused, opened the screen and sent a text message to Li Yunze: Li Yunze, let''s divorce! Chapter 1535 Looking at the text message sent out, why Ning''s tears fall uncontrollably again As she slapped on the screen of her mobile phone, she gradually clenched her hand with her mobile phone. Her pain is what she should bear, but she doesn''t want Li Yunze to suffer Although I know it''s impossible, it''s good to reduce it a little. At least, don''t let him bear the grief that his wife is the murderer who killed his brother, isn''t it?! Why rather closed his eyes, big tears were squeezed out of his eyes. If marrying Li Yunze is the most beautiful dream of her life, then at this moment, when she calls out "we divorce", he Yining only feels that her dream is shot through by thousands of arrows and suddenly wakes up. It turns out that she is already in the dark reincarnation and can''t come out. ¡­¡­ With a bang, the medical container plate slipped from Li Yunze''s hand. He looked at the cell phone standing aside. When the message came, it was directly displayed on the screen Because the words are short, he doesn''t even need to cross the screen to read it all. The people in the laboratory looked at each other one by one. They didn''t dare to breathe and swallowed one after another involuntarily. After Li Yunze came today, he obviously came with low pressure. People began to think it was because his hand was injured. After all, it goes without saying how important his hand is for doctors, especially those who face surgery all day. But soon, everyone found that the low air pressure on Li Yunze had nothing to do with his hands, but what it was about, so they didn''t know. Li Yunze got up, took his mobile phone, completely ignored the people''s attention and went out of the laboratory "What''s going on?" Someone shook his head, "I don''t know." "I heard that Li Shao was very strict when he was in the operating room. People who followed the operation would feel low pressure. Unexpectedly, it was the same in the research room..." the man said, and he couldn''t help but fight a cold war. Wang Yueqiang looked at the crowd, his eyes moved and fell on Li Yunze who had just left the automatic door, and frowned slightly. "Dr. Wang," the person on one side leaned over slightly, "how can I feel that Li Shao is a little strange? It seems like this these two days..." "I was fine when I left yesterday, and then I hurt my hand." Wang Yueqiang shook his head and sighed, "however, everyone will have some unpleasant things. Li Shao is also a person, but we have given him a myth." "Also..." In the research room, after a short discussion, everyone continued their work. Li Yunze left and went straight out of the Research Institute. When he saw that there was no car outside, he suddenly remembered that his hand was injured and he didn''t drive when he came over. He closed his eyes, took a deep breath, and then opened it... Li Yunze picked up his mobile phone and lowered his eyes. Looking at he Yining''s message, Li Yunze''s heart seemed to be slowly strangled by a very thin rope. At the same time of tightening, the small scratch saw blood, and the pain made him unable to control himself. Holding the mobile phone in his hand, he rattled, as if the mobile phone could disintegrate under Li Yunze in the next moment. I don''t know how long it took. At the moment when the screen was dark, Li Yunze''s hand holding the mobile phone slowed down slightly. He closed his eyes again. After taking a deep breath, Li Yunze opened his eyes and walked to the office of the Institute Sitting in the chair, Li Yunze seemed to abuse himself and transferred the text message out again. Both the remark name "silly Ning" and the "divorce" she sent stimulated Li Yunze''s nerves. Suddenly he clenched his hand. Suddenly, Li Yunze made a muffled sound in his throat. He looked at his left hand and rubbed the center of his eyebrows Just because I was too distracted, I clenched my hand and tightened my left hand at the same time, some of which pulled to the wound. Powerlessly leaning back on the chair, Li Yunze looked at the front without focus. After a while, he picked up his mobile phone and replied to he Yining. Li Yunze: I don''t know how to face the current situation... Hatred, resentment, how to be better. That''s it. Let''s suffer together! Divorce, impossible! After sending a text message, Li Yunze threw his mobile phone on the table at will and let the screen dim down. The darkness shrouded him ¡­¡­ One life lies between two people. No amount of love has become a sharp weapon for mutual torture Love is a double-edged sword, no matter for he Yining or Li Yunze. Xu is what Li Yunze said at the beginning. There is a marriage certificate. Anyway, there is always an opportunity to connect. Xu Shi, as Chen Yu said, can always find a breakthrough as long as there is such a line of connection, even if it is painful He Yining didn''t want Li Yunze to suffer, so he chose to divorce and push himself into the dark. Li Yunze didn''t give up, chose to put himself in the dark and pain, and didn''t agree to divorce Who is right and who is wrong, or whose heart is suffering, has long been unclear. Time is sometimes the best healing medicine in the world, and sometimes it is the dullest knife in the world. The next cut on the human body will not die, but will slowly "taste" the chronic pain. ¡­¡­ A month later, the whole city of Los Angeles was full of flowers and hopes. However, such hope does not belong to Li Yunze and he Yining. A month can make each other calm, or respect each other, such as "ice". Sometimes, coincidence is a good word to use, at least for he Yining and Li Yunze now They miss every day by coincidence, and they can''t meet by coincidence. They happen to be in a room, one in the bedroom and one in the laboratory... Either, one in the laboratory and one in the study. In the eyes of outsiders, Li Yunze and he Yining have no problems. At most, Li Yunze is too busy to ignore he Yining because of the affairs of al Research Institute. "Spring outing is finally our turn..." Chu Qin asked with a smile, "Yining, do you take your family?" Why rather pulled the corners of his mouth and shook his head, "he has been too busy lately..." Chu Qin sighed softly. Although she was a little lost, she said very understandably: "al Institute officially entered the research. It must be busy..." after a pause, she joked, "but it''s hard, you two in love!" He Yining smiled with a friendly smile, but only she knew how astringent such a disguise was. ¡­¡­ Wang Yueqiang used morning tea in the restaurant of the Research Institute, looked around, took out his mobile phone, called out a group of numbers marked "brother", and sent a text message: the personnel who will enter the core research will be scheduled for the meeting this afternoon. "Brother" replied quickly: do you think you are likely to go in? After Wang Yueqiang pretended to pass the left and right inadvertently, he replied with his eyes down: more than 90%! Looking at the sending out, Wang Yueqiang sent another one: what is the core research has not been disclosed yet. Whether it is the research you said or not, I should know it when I go in! Chapter 1536 Zheng Hao looked at the text message sent by Wang Yueqiang, crossed his mouth with a gloomy smile, and then asked: is there anything wrong with Li Yunze recently? Wang Yueqiang replied: it is estimated that he was injured in his hand and spent most of his time in the Research Institute. Zheng Hao replied "well", and asked Wang Yueqiang to be careful. After hanging up the phone, he looked at Meng Yi, who was cutting the apple. "The person arranged is likely to enter the final core research," Zheng Hao said. "Do you think the problem between Li Yunze and he Yining broke out?" "Isn''t Li Yunze''s hand hurt?" Meng Yi handed Zheng Hao the cut apple and took another one to continue cutting. "Anyway, Li Yunze would not be so interested in the people we arranged. Naturally, it is not easy to expose our people." Zheng Hao nodded, "as long as Wang Yueqiang enters the core, everything will be simple." Meng Yi''s movement in his hand stopped slightly, and a strange smile crossed the corner of his mouth. "Let Li Yunze take those two pages back, and the basic core problems will be gathered together. In the process, as long as our people can take them out, our wealth in the future..." He didn''t go on. Zheng Hao''s eyes were already shining with excitement. ¡­¡­ Al Institute, conference room. Those who can possibly enter the core research are nervous and waiting for the meeting time. Except Li Yunze, everyone else has been present. Everyone is talking to the neighbors, trying to decompress themselves and get a little comfort. Li Yunze came in. His left hand had been stitched off and his wound had been healed. He just took the scalpel and was not very flexible. "The meeting begins..." Li Yunze said while sitting down. "I read everyone''s report this month and noticed everyone''s ability. In this conference room, it is possible to enter the final core research..." The crowd swallowed involuntarily. A "possible" will eventually make people happy and excellent. Everyone doesn''t know Li Yunze''s criteria, but they all firmly believe that as long as he chooses, he must be the most suitable for the final core research. "Now, I need you to explain your abilities and convince me to choose you!" Li Yunze spoke faintly. Everyone looked at each other and obviously didn''t expect that they needed to convince Li Yunze and let themselves enter the core research. Wang Yueqiang slightly twisted his eyebrows, looked at Li Yunze, and slightly clenched his hand holding the pen. It was originally a matter of certainty, but if this is the way of selection, isn''t everything unknown? The most important thing is that such a selection method was not disclosed in advance. Everyone was unprepared and relied on on on-the-spot play. Wang Yueqiang looks around. No matter which side he starts from, he is in the middle and can have time to think about it. But there is also a disadvantage, that is, it is possible that what he thought has been said by the people in front of him Li Yunze''s eyes fell first on the left, "from you..." The first person on the left thought "bad luck" and began to convince Li Yunze with his own advantages. ¡­¡­ He Yining took off his surgical suit, rubbed his eyebrows and walked to the office "You''ve cut three today. It''s too hard." Chu Qin looked at he Yining. "Yining, are you doing something recently? I always think you always want to keep yourself busy this month..." "No!" Why rather pulled a smile, "it''s a temporary transfer, and I like the moment when I welcome the arrival of my little life... Young!" "Oh, yes!" Chu Qin sighed, "I was as motivated as you 20 years ago." He Yining and Chu Qin looked at each other, smiled and looked at the time. "I''ll clean up after work." She was in a small class today and just went back to see the samples she had cultivated before. "Well, good!" Chu Qin nodded and looked at the back of why he Yining left. He breathed a sigh of relief for no reason. "Director Chu, what''s the matter?" The head nurse of Obstetrics and Gynecology prepared the medicine for the evening and saw why Chu Qin was stunned. "I just feel that Yining has some recently..." Chu Qin said after thinking about it. "I don''t seem very happy, but I don''t think I should!" "How could Dr. he be unhappy and so affectionate with Li Shao..." the head nurse said with a smile, "director Chu, I think you are looking at the young show of love and thinking of your youth." Chu Qin smiled and shook her head as soon as she heard it. She also felt that she thought more. Why did Ning go back to the villa directly after work? Although she would feel sad every time she came back here after that "quarrel", she still wanted to come back. Because you can occasionally feel the breath of Li Yunze here. After pressing the password, why did Ning hang her eyes and push the door to go inside? She just felt that there was a figure shaking in front of her, and she subconsciously raised her eyes... To Li Yunze''s line of sight. Time seems to stand still for an instant, and even the air suddenly condenses. Why did Ning still hold on to the doorknob? She forgot everything and just looked at Li Yunze. Li Yunze''s hand is also on the inside doorknob. It may be too coincidental. One opens the door and the other pulls the door, so there is this moment. The two people didn''t move, it was like petrification, looking at each other. For a month, it is clear that many times they are in the same villa, but unfortunately, no one has "seen" anyone. He Yining''s nose is sour and his eyes are astringent But in the dense mist, she quickly leaned aside, stood by the door, lowered her eyes, said nothing, but her intention was very obvious. Li Yunze slightly clenched the door handle, because the subcutaneous layer did not fully recover. His left hand clenched the door handle was slightly tingling, as if to remind him of what happened that day Slowly put down his hand. No one spoke. Li Yunze lifted his step and left in front of he Yining. Why Ning pulled a smile at the corner of her mouth in time, but the tears fell uncontrollably at the moment when Li Yunze''s body crossed her The sunlight penetrated the crystal and finally fell to the ground, dizzy and stained with a drop of sadness. Li Yunze suddenly turned his head. At the same time, why should Ning have turned and walked into the house Two people clearly have a good heart. At this moment, they missed each other''s light sadness perfectly. Li Yunze pulled down the corner of his mouth, sighed deeply, left the villa and drove to Huakang Hospital Yining, even though I''m sad, I know you''re still in that villa. I''m actually at ease. Just Li Yunze smiled astringently at the corners of his mouth. He just doesn''t know how to face it or change it. They are now crossing the gap in the middle. Li Yunze stopped in the parking lot of Huakang hospital and looked at the line of sight ahead with a touch of calm pain. Untie your seat belt, get out of the car and step inside "Li Shao..." a nurse saw him and hurried forward. "Mrs. Chen Shao and her child had a car accident. The ambulance will come to our hospital right away!" Chapter 1537 Li Yunze hurried to the emergency building and had no time to think about how to find a balance between his dead brother and he Yining. Jane Mo was seriously injured. In order to protect Jane Jie, it can be said that she took all the injuries Gu Beichen has collapsed. In the face of life and death, no matter how powerful you are, you will become small and powerless. A rib was inserted into Jian Mo''s heart. The operation is extremely complex and fine. Even if all the attending doctors of Huakang gathered in the operating room, no one is sure to do the operation at the moment. However, Li Yunze, the only one who can achieve the highest success rate of the operation, has not fully recovered his left hand at the moment. The hospital seemed to be in a dead silence. At the moment, the doctor in charge of the operation made it clear that this operation can only be performed by Li Yunze. However, everyone knows that Li Yunze''s hand at the moment can''t be operated on completely. "Beichen, do you believe me?" Li Yunze asked. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were bloodshot. At the moment of Li Yunze, he pinned all his hopes on his brother''s hands. Li Yunze and Gu Beichen are the same age and different months. They grew up together since childhood. Li Yunze knows all things about Gu Beichen and accompanied him through the sunshine and darkness of his life. Witnessed the separation between him and Jian Mo, love hate entanglement In addition to the things between Li Yunze and he Yining, he knows too well what it means for Gu Beichen for Jian Mo to survive. Li Yunze entered the operating room. He boldly asked a doctor to act as his left hand when necessary. At the moment, he was glad that his right hand was not hurt Time passed in the tense operation, and Jian Mo''s life body fell sharply several times. If Gu Beichen''s forced "retention" hadn''t given her subconscious faith in living, I''m afraid the operation wouldn''t last until the end. Fortunately Jane Mo has too much greed for the world and too much reluctance to give up. In the end, the operation is successful. Although, can wake up, or when to wake up, is unknown The news of Jane Mo and Jane Jie''s car accident has occupied the front page headlines of all major pages. Also because of this news, the reports of al Institute''s members who finally entered the core research were submerged. "You mean you lost the election?" Zheng Hao listened to Wang Yueqiang''s words and immediately wrung his eyebrows. "Didn''t you say that 90% of the chance can enter?" "But no one knows that major Li will use such an assessment method in the end!" Wang Yueqiang gritted his teeth. "However, I still have a chance. Now it''s the early stage. A year later, a group of people will enter the second stage." "A year? Do you think I have so much time for you?" "But the core is also the later research. Wouldn''t it be better if I entered phase II?" Wang Yueqiang said hurriedly, "moreover, there is less risk for one year." Zheng Hao listened, looked at Meng Yi, saw him nod, and said coldly, "Wang Yueqiang, if you don''t want to ruin your future, you''d better give me some heart." "I will..." Wang Yueqiang just hung up his phone. "You said, did Li Yunze feel something?" Zheng Hao asked Meng Yi. Meng Yi poured two glasses of red wine and handed Zheng Hao a cup. After drinking, he said, "the more careful he is, the more we want that research..." he paused. "Hasn''t the firewall of the research institute been broken yet?" Zheng Hao shook his head. "Come back there. This firewall has the ability to automatically modify the path. Each attack will be different from the last time, and it''s too messy to find the law." Meng Yi screwed off his eyebrows and calmed down after a touch of anxiety at the bottom of his eyes. "Now we have to wait and see the change, and then look for opportunities. We must not be radical because of anxiety..." Zheng Hao nodded to show understanding. ¡­¡­ He Yining looked at the rain outside and was slightly distracted. The mobile phone ring suddenly came. He Yining took it out. After another month of "cold war", she didn''t expect that the phone was from Li Yunze. In fact, after the showdown, they just sent each other a text message. She said divorce, Li Yunze disagreed. Then he became the most familiar stranger in the world Clearly living under the same roof, but they seem to forget to talk to each other. "Scorching..." "The rain feels heavier and heavier. Are you still coming?" Yan Miao asked. "In the past, I want to go and have a look at the foam..." he Yining looked out of the window and said with a smile, "on such a rainy day, it''s best to stay with my best friend in the book bar, drink a cup of coffee, eat a piece of cake, read books and have a chat." Yan Miao smiled. "He''s also hypocritical." "Well, a woman with proper affectation will have good luck..." why Ning said with a smile, watching the rain fall on the window and subconsciously rubbing it with her fingers. "OK, I''ll wait for you!" Yan Miao answered as he walked to the office. "I have to see Mo Mo first before I go to your department to find you." "Good drop!" "See you later," Miao said "See you later." He Yining hung up the phone, then turned around and packed up his things. When the doctors who took over the shift came, they signed the shift records with each other and wanted to take a taxi to Huakang. However, when the talent came to the door, he ran into Ma Guangming. It was said that they were all going to Huakang. President Ma, who didn''t know where to go, naturally invited him with enthusiasm "Is doctor he looking for Li Shao?" The driver glanced at why he Ning. "A friend is in hospital over there. Go and see a friend!" Why would you rather smile. The driver smiled, "look at your friends and find Li Shao to have dinner together and go home!" "Isn''t that nonsense?" Ma Guangming said, looking at he Yining, who was sitting in the co pilot''s seat, "doctor he, don''t wait to have dinner with Li Shao?" Why rather pull the corners of his mouth, "the Dean can try to make an appointment with him, but I won''t accompany him. After reading my friends, my best friend and I are going to the book." As soon as Ma Guangming heard this, he Yining thought that he Yining refused, and he didn''t continue to say it. For fear that turning back would delay her and Li Shao''s private life, the Huakang new drug Shuya wanted became unknown. After arriving at the hospital, Ma Guangming went to Li Yunze''s office and he Yining went to the VIP ward area. Pressed the floor elevator of Jane Mo, why would you rather wait for the elevator quietly. The "Ding" sound came and the elevator arrived. At the moment when the elevator door opened, he Yining raised his feet inertia and prepared to get out of the elevator... He almost didn''t hit Li Yunze. The two looked at each other, and then, one coldly crossed, the other grabbed the corner of his mouth and entered the elevator, as if they were strangers. Li Yunze''s steps out of the elevator stopped slightly, and his eyes suddenly gathered. He didn''t even have time to think. His thoughts controlled his actions and turned around quickly Chapter 1538 The elevator door just closed with a soft bang. Li Yunze saw nothing but the last gap. A touch of self mockery crossed the bottom of his eyes. Li Yunze stood still and looked at the closed elevator door. I don''t know how long to keep this posture. When Xiao Jing came down from upstairs and the elevator door opened, he saw Li Yunze''s vision suddenly brighten and made a "tut" sound. "Li Shao, what does this look mean?" Xiao Jing touched his chin and said thoughtfully, "are you too disappointed to see me, or are you waiting for someone to appear and lose when you see me?" Li Yunze slightly sank his face and snorted coldly, "I think Beichen doesn''t have time to deduct your year-end bonus now, so you''ll turn your tail into the sky..." The words fell, Li Yunze coldly took back his sight, turned unhappily and walked out. "..." Xiao Jing twitched at the corner of his mouth, grinned at Li Yunze''s back and said, "I said, can you stop talking about things with my year-end bonus?" Li Yunze ignored Xiao Jing. Now he was in a bad mood, especially when he saw Xiao Jing! When Ma Guangming saw Li Yunze coming, he hurried forward with a pile of smiles, "Li Shao." Li Yunze and Ma Guangming said hello and ordered people to make tea before entering the office one after another. "Did Li Shao see doctor he?" Ma Guangming asked with a smile. Li Yunze nodded, "just met." "I also joked with Dr. he in the car. She said to come and see my friends..." Ma Guangming said with a gossip constitution. "When I arrived at Huakang, I remembered that the president''s wife of the emperor was here." Speaking of the back, Ma Guangming sighed and regretted. Li Yunze sneered and didn''t answer. Listening to Ma Guangming''s topic from Jian Mo to why Yining, he praised why Yining''s recent work attitude and performance. Of course, he didn''t exaggerate. Why should he rather work "seriously" and be busy recently. Because as long as she is free, she will think of all kinds of things between Li Yunze and she will not be able to control her and fall into boundless sadness ¡­¡­ It''s raining outside for a long time. It''s been raining for a whole day. The book in front of him Yining turned a few pages, the coffee was a little cold, and a piece of cake was dug out... It seemed that everything was incomplete. Yan Miao looked at he Yining, then turned his head along her line of sight and looked at the wooden lattice window. This book bar is full of old-fashioned flavor. The air is filled with a faint fragrance of flowers mixed with the smell of logs. It is refreshing and makes people easily indulge in the nostalgic smell of nature. The rain on the window winds down. No matter how twisted, it seems that it can''t change the fate of finally falling to the ground He Yining gently fanned his eyes and whispered, "Yan Yan, I think Zi Han." "I miss her too..." yanmiao sighed softly. "Zihan feels that he has become a military newspaper since he was with PEI Shengyao." He Yining holds his cheek in his hand and looks at the rain winding on the window. His sight is gradually lax. Yan Miao lay on the table with his arms folded and looked at the rain outside. "When people are big, they are worried..." She pulled down the corner of her mouth. "In the past, the three of us used to read books in the book bar occasionally. What we saw most was the little love of ''the overbearing president loves me''. We always felt that love could be dependent on life and death when we were abused..." "At that time, we actually envied that kind of love." He Yining fanned his eyes, "because no matter how sad the process is, there will always be a happy ending." However, whether it''s Beichen and Momo, or she and Li Yunze Experiencing the routine of small love, but can''t see the light ahead. Yan Miao put his chin on the back of his hand and looked at he Yining. "Yining, the earth is round. Do you believe everything can go back to the starting point and start over?" "What happened, how to start again?" It''s time for me to laugh at the heroine of the novel. "Well, what if it''s my rebirth?" She will continue to love Li Yunze, but she will no longer foolishly believe Qu Weiwei, nor will she inadvertently take away Yunhao''s brother''s manuscript, leading to tragedy But if the fate is really reversed, will there be her short-term happiness and the existence of one by one?! He Yining doesn''t know In the sight, there was a couple quarreling in the rain. Finally, the umbrella fell on the ground and was wet by the rain. Men and women moved in two directions and allowed the rain to wet themselves, but they were unwilling to play the same umbrella again. Why Ning''s nose is so sore, and the soft music in the book bar at the moment may be because it''s always inexplicably sad on rainy days. Obviously I''m not listening to music, but why Ning''s eyes turn red when the lyrics tease the nerves autonomously "At the dawn of the city, the tragedy ended with two more people... What if we can always love? Can it last forever... Once your warm palm doesn''t need to imagine... I can wander alone for a long time..." Tears, hot, slipped from the corners of the eyes and gradually disappeared along the fingers holding the cheeks. He Yining kept looking at the umbrella that was slightly rotated by the rain, and didn''t find that he was crying at the moment. Yan Miao frowned and sat up slowly "Yining..." yanmiao shouted softly. "Time is like sand. Who is infected with whose sadness?" He Yining said slowly, "in the end, I''m the only one left in this city..." The words of the literary and artistic youth overflowed from the corners of the smiling mouth with sadness, but the tears were as cool as rain and wound on their cheeks. Yan Miao''s eyebrows were tightly screwed together. Looking at such he Yining, she was a little afraid. Because, without anger, there is only a body "Yan Yan, I''m fine..." he Yining shook his eyelashes gently. "I just love him so much that I forget to love myself!" Yanmiao''s heart was stabbed. Why did Ning Mingming lose her fantasy about everything? But it happened that she was forced to face life because she loved a man named ''Li Yunze''. It rained as if it had been raining for a whole year. When Gu Beichen waited for Jian Mo to wake up and wait for a year. At the end of next spring, looking at the rain outside, he said sadly to her, "it''s raining. Should you wake up after sleeping for a year?" It turned out that she could be the ''most familiar stranger'' with Li Yunze for a year. Who would believe that Li Yunze and he Yining "live" in a villa. This year... They don''t have so many opportunities to "meet" together. The sound of "drop" came the sound of SMS arrival. Why Ning subconsciously took it and crossed it. When she saw the text message, she forgot her reaction Li Yunze: meet me tonight! Chapter 1539 The simple five words, why should I rather look at them with a stroke? When the screen is going to dim, my fingers touch it uncontrollably. Meet? In fact, they "meet" every day, don''t they? Why should Ning quietly look at these five words and suddenly find that she forgot what sadness was like at this moment and didn''t know what joy should be like. For a year, it seems that she has forgotten a lot of emotions. She smiles every day, but she doesn''t know what emotion should be affected behind her smile She enjoys loneliness every day, but she doesn''t understand whether loneliness should be sadness or confusion under expectation. He Yining knows that he is ill It is said that doctors do not treat themselves. She knows she is ill and how to "treat", but there is no way to treat it! Is it contradictory? Maybe Why Ning pulled an ugly smile at the corners of her mouth? It should be a bitter emotion, but she didn''t know what it was like. "Dr. he," a nurse''s hurried voice came, "there were a series of car accidents nearby, and many people were sent to the emergency department. There were pregnant women... The director asked you to help." He Yining was first in surgery and later in obstetrics and gynecology. In this case, she will make the most direct diagnosis of the pregnant woman more effectively. He Yining listened and couldn''t think about anything. Subconsciously, he put his mobile phone on his desk, got up quickly, took the stethoscope and ran out Li Yunze, who had just entered the elevator and couldn''t wait for a text message reply for a long time, called The mobile phone flickered with the bell on the desk until the bell suddenly stopped and the screen dimmed. Li Yunze frowned slightly and dialed again, but no one answered. When I dialed the third time, someone finally answered the phone "With..." "Li Shao!" Li Yunze frowned and listened to the voice from the phone, "what doctor are you looking for?" Before he could answer, the other party said, "there was a series of car accidents nearby. Dr. he went to the emergency room..." "What''s going on?" Li Yunze frowned. The other party roughly explained the situation. Because of the rain, a cement truck tilted and slammed into a business car in front. The car behind didn''t have time to stop, and then hit one by one. The injury was both heavy and light. "When Dr. he comes back, I''ll tell her that you called her..." "No, it''s nothing." Li Yunze said thanks and hung up. It''s raining outside. Beichen has been waiting for Jane Mo to wake up for a year. No one knows whether Jane Mo will wake up. Even if he is a doctor and a brother, what he can give Beichen is just a sentence... Waiting for a miracle. When a call came in, Li Yunze looked at it and picked it up. "Li Shao, will the personnel selection of phase II of core research be on schedule tomorrow morning?" "As scheduled." Li Yunze spoke indifferently. "OK, I''ll inform you..." "Yes." Li Yunze hung up the phone, went to the parking lot and drove back to the villa. Beichen cried today, a desperate one. Li Yunze is thinking that one year may be enough to precipitate some things. Even if you can''t let go, you should find an opportunity and give each other another opportunity. However, Li Yunze doesn''t know that people are always tired It rained all night and Li Yunze waited all night. Why didn''t he come back. He would have been busy watching the news in the evening, but he would have been busy waiting for the news. The rain gradually stopped after dawn. Li Yunze looked at the time and had to go to the al Institute for a meeting to select the researchers who entered the second stage of research Drooping his eyes, he Yining sent a text message: I go to the Institute for a meeting. Don''t go out when I come back. Wait for me to come back. Just as Li Yunze had just left the villa area and turned to the Research Institute, why would he rather take a taxi and miss him again. He Yining didn''t read text messages. Except when she was in the hospital, now she seems to be not interested in anything ¡­¡­ Al Institute. More people will be used in the second phase of core research. Five people should be selected from the research institute to enter the second phase of research. This time, Wang Yueqiang successfully entered the core research. For Meng Yi, who has been dormant for another year, the significance of his entry is just to know whether Li Yunze''s research this time is the research of Li Yunhao that year. He had deliberately borrowed Qu Weiwei''s mouth to make Li Yunze disordered. At the same time, the most important thing was to let him take back the two pages As long as he gets the project before studying the finished product of the project, and then lets the middleman trade it according to the previous transaction price, he should enjoy happiness in his life. Li Yunze held a meeting after selecting personnel. With regard to the allocation of personnel and the progress of the project to be studied. Wang Yueqiang heard that at last, there was an irresistible light in his excited sight. Li Yunze took back his sight after passing Wang Yueqiang indifferently. "Starting tomorrow, everyone will be very busy. If there is no accident, I want to make the finished product in a year at the latest..." Everyone was full of fighting spirit. Li Yunze converged his eyes with satisfaction, looked at the time, got up and left. However, when passing by Wang Yueqiang, he glanced at Yu Guang lightly, and a touch of awe struck at the bottom of his eyes Xiao Nan checked the background of all the people who entered the research room and what happened around them in the past three years. When a person''s identity is too "clean", if it is not true, it must be deliberate. But anyway, he had to guard against Since the core research is used to confuse the secret people, he naturally wants to keep the general direction intact It''s not difficult for a medical family to confuse the false with the true with drugs of the same composition! Li Yunze thought, and a sneer crossed the corner of his mouth. He hopes that Wang Yueqiang has a problem. At least in this way, the research he used as a cover can be transmitted. When attracting the attention of people in the dark, the research that really entered the tense stage can be carried out smoothly. Li Yunze opened the door and saw why he was sleeping on the lazy sofa. With a slight frown, he took a light step and went to get a thin blanket to cover why Ning However, as soon as the thin blanket met he Yining, she suddenly woke up. He Yining didn''t move, and Li Yunze''s movement with the corner of the thin blanket also froze in the distance. The two looked at each other like this In a year, they knew what each other was doing, but they looked at each other so much that they were almost numbered. Why rather gently fanning her eyes, sleepy, she always felt that she was dreaming Li Yunze looked at he Yining quietly. In fact, he didn''t seldom see her in a year. Many times, he would go upstairs to see her after working from the underground laboratory. I can''t pass the barrier in my heart, but I never let her go Chapter 1540 "Yining..." Because Li Ze didn''t know his name for a long time. "I don''t know when you''ll be back. I didn''t cook." Why would you rather open your mouth gently and look calm. Li Yunze frowned slightly. Looking at such a plain he Yining, she never thought that she had forgotten how to express her emotions "Let''s do it together!" Li Yunze asked cautiously. He Yining thought and nodded. Li Yunze helped him to get better. I don''t know why. Obviously this year, he wasn''t far away from her, but at this moment, people were in front of him, but he always felt that he couldn''t feel it. A meal is not as warm and playful as before. There is only the sound of washing, cutting and frying vegetables. Monotonous is a little boring Li Yunze made steamed eggs for he Yining, which was clearly her favorite food. She often couldn''t control eating a lot, but he Yining found for the first time that she could hate the feeling that she wanted to vomit when a food came into her mouth. "What''s the matter?" Li Yunze slightly twisted his eyebrows, and his eyes tightly looked at he Yining who was wrong. He Ning shook his head last night. "I don''t think he was too busy." Li Yunze quietly looked at he Yining and knew that she had lied, but he couldn''t "expose" her at the moment, which made the two people get along more embarrassed at the moment. "Yining..." "Huh?" He Yining raised his eyes and looked at Li Yunze, gently fanned his eyes, and then his eyebrows tightened slightly. Looking at why Yining, Li Yunze was a little distracted. The corners of his mouth moved back and forth, but he didn''t know how to continue the topic. He Yining was really distracted. She suddenly thought that Li Yunze called her. Why did she forget what emotion she should have at that moment? After a while, seeing why Ning didn''t return to his mind, Li Yunze couldn''t help sighing. "Yining, I think we may..." "By the way," he Yining suddenly crossed something in his mind, and interrupted Li Yunze''s words at the same time. "When I left yesterday, I went to the laboratory to have a look. I''m going to enter the final stage of the experiment, isn''t it?" Li Yunze said half of his words and nodded. After he Yining was silent for a few seconds, she said to the corner of her mouth, "well, if..." she paused, as if hesitant, "if you don''t mind, I''ll finish the rest of the experiment with you." He Yining doesn''t know whether Li Yunze came to her yesterday because of this matter. After a year of previous preliminary work, now he wants to officially start cultivating samples. A person will take care of the left and ignore the right. Now the situation of the two of them, she felt that she should not let Li Yunze speak to her, but she should take the initiative to ask. "Yining, what I want to say is not..." "Of course, it doesn''t matter if you think I''m not qualified to participate." He Yining interrupted Li Yunze''s words again. He lowered his eyes and slightly turned the chopsticks in his hand. His face didn''t change too much because he forgot his emotion. "I just think that one more person may be able to study the finished product earlier. In that case..." she raised her eyes and looked at Li Yunze. "You can also apply for patent protection earlier to save more dreams." Li Yunze looked at he Yining and suddenly found that one year''s "strangeness" really opened the distance between each other It was a crack in the heart. After scabbing, he buried his deep love in bone and blood, but he didn''t dare to touch it again. Because I''m afraid, I''m bleeding again. "OK..." Li Yunze answered, "next, let''s work together." Yining, if eldest brother is the knot in our hearts, then we can study the achievements of eldest brother and benefit more people... Just take me and you as the atonement for eldest brother, okay?! Li Yunze looked at he Yining''s line of sight gradually deepened, and his hand holding chopsticks clenched slightly. Whether it''s an excuse for peace of mind or not, let''s finish the regret of eldest brother''s contribution to medical treatment together, and then let''s put it down and have a good life together. Yining, I didn''t think that when Beichen took this step, I came to retain years and time! Li Yunze looked at why Ning drooped his eyes and continued to eat steamed eggs quietly. He clearly felt that she was not comfortable with what she ate, but he couldn''t say anything if he wanted to stop it. At this moment, he was suddenly a little afraid. Yining resisted her favorite steamed egg. Did she also resist him ¡­¡­ It rains and stops for a while. When it comes to the rainy season, it always makes people a little upset. But such weather seems to be the most suitable weather for eating hot pot. Every hot pot shop is full. "What are you talking about?" Zhao Xiaomei of Shuya outpatient medical guidance desk looked surprised. "Keep your voice down..." Zhang Xinya, a nurse of Obstetrics and Gynecology, stared. Zhao Xiaomei looked around, then slightly lowered her voice and said, "is it true? It''s impossible!" "Who knows?" Zhang Xinya shrugged, rinsed a piece of mutton and said, "didn''t Dr. he go to the emergency room to help with the car accident yesterday?! then the mobile phone was put in the office without me... I just went in to deliver things and received a call from Li Shao." "And then?" Gossip on Zhao Xiaomei''s face. "I said Dr. he wasn''t going to the emergency room, and then Li Shao hung up." Zhang Xinya continued, "however, I saw the record of Li Shao''s previous text message on the record. I was curious to go in and have a look..." "Say goodbye?" Zhang Xinya glared. "Of course not..." she leaned over slightly. "Just say ''meet in the evening''. Is it strange that you say? They clearly live together. Even if they are busy on shifts or at the Lishao Research Institute, they shouldn''t have such a tone?" "Then you can''t prove that their relationship is very stiff!" Zhao Xiaomei glanced. "I always think Dr. he and Li Shao are quite matched. They are also very compatible together." "Seriously, it''s a little immoral to peek at people''s privacy, but I still couldn''t help looking up at two..." Zhang Xinya''s face was a little tangled. She didn''t want to say it, but she couldn''t help it in the end. "If Dr. he didn''t delete the text message, both of them sent their last message a year ago..." Zhao Xiaomei''s eyes widened in surprise. "The most important thing is the two. One is that doctor he told Li Shao about divorce, and the other is that Li Shao''s reply is impossible!" Zhang Xinya said mysteriously, "moreover, the tone is also very strange..." "You mean they''re actually married?" Zhao Xiaomei grasped the key point. Zhang Xinya rolled her eyes. "Girl, is your focus wrong?" "...." Zhao Xiaomei was stunned. "What should I pay attention to?" "They live together. I don''t think it''s strange that they''ve got a certificate. It''s just a wedding..." Zhang Xinya said. "It''s just that they announced that they were together in a high-profile way a year ago, and then they just lived in the villa, and they suddenly wanted a divorce soon..." After a pause, Zhang Xinya twisted her eyebrows and said, "what I''m most curious about is, if the relationship between the two people is not as high-profile as it seems, why do they still live together this year?" "Why?" Zhao Xiaomei asked. Just as her words fell, Zheng Hao at the next table looked over slightly and his eyes fell on Zhang Xinya Chapter 1541 In terms of time, Qu Weiwei should have delivered the news to Li Yunze, so the relationship between Li Yunze and he Yining became rigid. The two people didn''t live separately. After all, there are feelings between them After listening to her friend, Zheng Ya also wanted to take back the hot pot and continue to drink with her. However, some doubts flashed in his mind If Li Yunze and he Yining are really in the cold war, why did Li Yunze suddenly meet with he Yining last night? I can''t. After a year, are you relieved of Li Yunhao''s death? Zheng Hao sneered and felt that he had been doing something leisurely. Zhang Xinya and Zhao Xiaomei are still chatting. Women''s nature is gossip. They can always release all kinds of speculation from something that may have nothing. However, fortunately, they just talk in private. First of all, they both felt that he Yining was easy to get along with and liked. Although they were jealous of her and Li Yunze, their emotions were only benign. Coupled with Li Yunze''s position in the medical profession, the two little people naturally don''t want to get into trouble. It''s hard for them to get a decent and good job and say goodbye to themselves. It''s raining all the time, including the excitement in the hot pot shop and the "Silence" in the research room under the villa. Li Yunze occasionally looks at the busy he Yining. The two have no communication in a year. However, they are very clear about all the initial samples cultivated in this laboratory, so at this moment, there is no gap between them without communication. "It will take two hours for this smear sample to get results," he Yining said softly. "I''ve been sleeping for a long time and I''m not sleepy at the moment. Why don''t you take a break and I''ll call you when the results come out." "Just wait here." Li Yunze opened his mouth and didn''t leave his sight from beginning to end. He Yining. Why should I rather smile at the corner of my mouth, "then I''ll make coffee." Then the man turned around. Li Yunze frowned slightly, "Yining..." He Yining didn''t stop, but accelerated some and left the laboratory. Li Yunze pulled the corners of his mouth with self mockery. It''s no wonder why he preferred his attitude at the moment. After all, after a year of meeting strangers, there are not only ravines but also cracks between each other Even if he is a master of medicine, he also needs to wait for healing after stitching the wound. If the previous year, Li Yunze and he Yining became the most familiar strangers in the rain of "a whole year" Over the next year, they became the strangest people who loved each other but forgot how to express themselves! Meet every day, but never have a private topic... The only thing that can make each other communicate is research. Every week, except for the busy time, we can eat at least three or five meals together. Most of them are done together, but there are still not many topics. Li Yunze would be interrupted by he Yining whenever he wanted to say something. Later... They were used to such silent company. The wound needs time to be treated and healed. Li Yunze looked at all the samples in the temperature control room and waited only one month to come out, so he could carry out the final stage. The curling ice mist is floating in the temperature control room. Li Yunze looks at it and gradually loses his mind Yining, if fast, the research was successful years ago. This time I use this achievement to "propose" to you again. Since then, we have nothing to do between us! After all, it''s no more than three, isn''t it?! ¡­¡­ "Dr. he," Zhang Xinya handed him a disinfection towel, "when is your wedding with Li Shao?" He Yining wiped his hands and answered faintly, "there is no definite news yet, so I can''t answer." Zhang Xinya is curious about the relationship between he Yining and Li Yunze. If she thought there was something fishy between them last year, then she thought she was too guessing? After all, many times later, she saw Li Shao come to pick up Dr. he from work Does it mean that Dr. Li Shaoai''s love for Dr. he is dead and alive? In fact, Dr. he ignored Li Shaoai?! Tut Tut, sure enough, in the matter of love, who loves more and who is humble "Alas, it''s been more than two years since you and Li Shao invited us to dinner last time..." Zhang Xinya followed he Yining out of the operating room. "I''m getting married soon. You and Li Shao are not sure about the time." Why Ning smiled and was about to say something when the phone in his pocket rang. When Zhang Xinya saw he Yining take out his mobile phone, she saw with sharp eyes that the incoming call was'' Li Yunze '', and her eyes lit up. Why did ningdun answer the phone after a while? He listened to Li Yunze say, "Jane Mo just came for a tire inspection..." "Everything is fine!" Why would you rather sip the corners of your mouth. "No big problem." "Well, that''s good..." In a few words, there was silence between the two people. Just like the communication between two people in this year, as long as it''s irrelevant, you can answer two sentences, but then there is silence. Zhang Xinya turned her eyes and said jokingly: "doctor he, is it inconvenient for me to talk to Li Shao?" She smiled. "I dodge!" He Yining looked at Zhang Xinya with her mobile phone. Some didn''t know how to respond to her teasing. "By the way, Dr. he, young Li has been busy for so long. Remember to ask him to invite us'' mother''s family ''to dinner, so that we can keep in touch with each other and watch you for him at the same time!" Why did Ning pull at the corner of his mouth and listen to Li Yunze at the other end of the phone: "I agree. Let''s go to the villa for barbecue this weekend!" "..." he Yining frowned slightly and conveyed Li Yunze''s meaning without much emotion. Zhang Xinya suddenly brightened her eyes. She was curious about the relationship between he Yining and Li Yunze. She was joking just now. She didn''t expect Li Yunze to agree and go to their villa. "Dr. he, thank Li Shao for us..." Zhang Xinya happily compared with he Yining, smiled and turned away. He Yining took back his sight and was silent. "I''m busy first." "I''ll pick you up after work." Li Yunze said. He Yining kept a habitual silence and answered, "OK!" Li Yunze sighed and hung up the phone The late autumn wind blew gently and swept off another layer of old leaves, falling in front of us. Li Yunze raised his hand slowly, and a yellow leaf fell on the warm palm, which made him suddenly feel lost in the wind due to the loss of traction. "Li Shao..." A voice came from behind. Li Yunze regained consciousness. When his palm moved, the yellow leaves fell. He lowered his eyes and glanced lightly, then turned around and looked at the man. "The sample is out. Would you like to go and have a look?" While Wang Yueqiang asked, there was a trace of tension in the bottom of his eyes. Chapter 1542 Li Yunze nodded and turned around. When he passed Wang Yueqiang, Yu Guang glanced faintly and didn''t let go of the excitement in his eyes Secretly sneered, and Li Yunze kept walking in. At present, this smoke bomb is very successful. No matter what Wang Yueqiang''s way is, he knows very well that the other party has not acted completely because of his message. However, the next step can not be wrong. A mistake may cause unpredictable continuous problems. "Li Yunze..." Suddenly, a voice came from behind. Li Yunze frowned slightly and turned around. Sure enough, he saw that Fang Xiran was still wearing a military uniform, holding a military cap in his hand, and smiled at him with pride. Over the past two years, Fang Xiran, who was a junior one Mao three, is now the instructor of the reconnaissance company of two Mao one. As a female officer, such a rising speed has been very fast. "Stop!" Li Yunze spoke coldly when Fang Xiran was about to step up the steps. Fang Xiran suddenly stopped, looked at the Research Institute, and suddenly reacted, "I''m so excited, I forgot." After a pause, she hooked her fingers towards Li Yunze. Li Yunze frowned again and looked at Wang Yueqiang. "Go ahead and I''ll look back." Wang Yueqiang looked at the eye side, and secretly, Tucao down, make complaints about the Advanced Research Institute. Fang Xiran watched Wang Yueqiang leave and slightly picked his chin. When Li Yunze came down, she raised her eyebrows and whispered, "it seems that I came at a good time. You should thank me." "Why?" Li Yunze hissed coldly. "Although I don''t know what you want to hide from the man just now, it''s obvious that he is very disappointed that you don''t go to see the sample." Fang Xiran still looked proud, "don''t forget, I''m from the reconnaissance company." If she has no ability to observe words and expressions, how can she be a coach?! "What''s up?" Li Yunze did not answer the question. Fang Xiran looked around. "When will Jin shaosi return to Los Angeles?" She glanced down. "Why is that man so stingy? He doesn''t answer the phone..." she said. She bared her teeth angrily. "I came back for the meeting this time. It''s estimated that I''ll stay for about a week." "I don''t know..." Li Yunze replied coldly, glancing at Fang Xiran. This once threatened to take him down. When he was annoyed by Fang Xiran and directly threw his marriage certificate with he Yining in front of her, the woman said to him with a sigh of relief: I''m still struggling with how to find the next step if I leave it. Now I finally have it. The woman shook his hand and said thank you. The last face said seriously: "Li Yunze, you know, I think Jin shaosi is more to my appetite, but I boast with so many people that I want to win you. It''s no face to leave without fighting... Now your marriage certificate is earlier than when I boast. I''m a soldier. How can I destroy other people''s marriage, right? So, thank you very much..." Li Yunze thought he had got rid of a proud woman in his life, but unexpectedly, the proud woman came to him to inquire about people because she "played hide and seek" with major Jin. For example, now "You don''t know?" Fang Xi ran rolled his eyes. "Who believes it?" She sneered, "your woman and Jin shaosi are childhood sweethearts. Will he hide his whereabouts from your wife?" "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth, "Fang Xiran, can you stop pulling my woman every time you ask young secretary Jin!" "Originally!" Fang Xiran came forward and patted Li Yunze on the shoulder. "Comrade, we must dare to face the reality before we can apply the medicine to the case... You are a doctor, don''t you understand this?!" "..." Li Yunze really wanted to kick the fly. Suddenly Just when Li Yunze couldn''t stand Fang Xiran, she suddenly "ah", then twisted her eyebrows and said, "no, I won''t tell you about your wife and young secretary Jin, so you don''t know... It''s over, young secretary Jin is always peeping at your wife, handsome, rich and considerate. In case your old woman can''t stand the temptation, it''s not that the meat in my mouth has been taken away?" "Can you chat?" Li Yunze immediately turned black. Fang Xilan looked at his expression and suddenly looked dignified. "What''s your expression?" Li Yunze frowned. Fang Xilan''s pretty and heroic face was disappointed, "if it''s really my guess, you can''t see your wife, you deserve it, but my little company was hooked by your wife, and I''ll lose a lot!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Li Yunze''s mouth was uncontrollably melancholy, and he had nothing to say to Fang Xiran. Listening to Fang Xiran''s analysis, Li Yunze couldn''t stand the stimulation and said coldly, "Huo Qishen is in hospital. Now that you''re back, aren''t you going to see him?" "I''m busy planning how to catch up with my man. How can I have time to take care of other men?" Fang Xiran''s eyebrows were knotted, "Li Yunze, in case Ning is really with Jin shaosi, you say..." "Shut up!" Li Yunze directly sank his face, "which man will Yining be with except me?!" Then he looked back angrily and turned to the research room Fang Xiran''s words and a needle directly poked into Li Yunze''s heart. It was a feeling that people who would not die at once but were painful could not breathe. Jin shaosi wants to take Yining away many times. He knows He knew Yining would not leave, but now he had no self-confidence. Was Yining''s heart still on him. It was a pull of a rope, only one of which was still connected, and the feeling that the others had broken made him uneasy ¡­¡­ Huakang hospital, VIP ward. A nurse came out of Huo Qishen''s ward with a smile in her mouth and teasing in her eyes. "Doctor Fang has come to stimulate Huo Da Shao again?" The nurse nodded with a smile. "The young master was drunk and sat on the protruding pipe as a stool. He didn''t hurt the key part. He''s thankful. Last time he laughed at Dr. Fang''s revenge, Dr. Fang couldn''t repay it well!" Suddenly, the nurses outside laughed. "Chrysanthemum residue... All over the ground..." Yanmiao leaned on the cabinet to her waist and pulled out an African chrysanthemum she had just inserted into the vase. While singing, she looked at Huo Qishen and pulled out the petals of an African chrysanthemum at the same time. "Yan Miao, do you treat patients like this?" Huo Qishen clenched his teeth. Yan Miao stopped singing, smiled and said, "I said Huo Dashao, what''s the matter with the patient?" She looked innocent. "I have to say what I''m doing now. I''m just talking about this... Chrysanthemum," she said, pulling off another petal, "singing chrysanthemum residue!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Huo Qishen''s lying body tightened. When yanmiao pulled off a petal again, he just felt that his chrysanthemum followed closely, "yanmiao, I remember!" Yanmiao sneered and threw the gerbera with half of its petals directly to Huo Qishen''s chrysanthemum, "wait until your chrysanthemum is well raised!" Said, she took out the ringing mobile phone, saw why Yining called, stared at Huo Qi who wanted to quarrel with her, and then said, "Yining?" Chapter 1543 "On Saturday, Li Yunze will entertain some people in our department in the villa. What class do you work on weekends?" He Yining asked. Yanmiao knows the relationship between he Yining and Li Yunze best, although she doesn''t know what the problem is. "I''ll calculate..." yanmiao was slightly pensive. Huo Qishen turned around in bed with the pain of chrysanthemum and came over, "I was like a day shift that day." "Can I change shifts?" Why did Ning zhe lower the corner of his mouth, drooping his eyes and gently opening his mouth, "I''m afraid I can''t deal with it alone..." Yanmiao was suddenly astringent in her heart. Looking at such he Yining, her heart was in pain. He Yining gently rubbed the handrail of the stairs with his fingers, waiting for yanmiao''s answer. "There are no surgical arrangements for the weekend. I can change shifts." Yanmiao sighed and paused, forgetting that there was a Huo Qishen in the ward and said, "Yining, have you ever thought of separating from him?" He Yining was silent and said calmly, "I don''t know, I haven''t thought about it..." paused, "let it be!" Yan Miao''s heart became more and more heavy, "you..." "Yan Yan, I''m fine." Why rather pull the corners of his mouth, "I guess I''ve experienced too much, and now I''m calm." Yan Miao is more and more distressed. How can she be better? How tenacious she was before? No matter at any time, it seems that self pity or calm has nothing to do with her. She always has all kinds of ways to motivate herself But now?! She can only feel the passing of life. "Well, I''ll be busy first." He Yining said, "see you at the weekend." Yanmiao answered and hung up the phone. When she was melancholy, she suddenly felt a strange smell around her. She was so frightened that she shrank aside and tripped over the wheel under the bed "Ah", Huo Qishen subconsciously went to catch yanmiao. Then, due to inertia, Huo Qishen sank down in a kneeling posture, and yanmiao''s body center of gravity fell to Huo Qishen Huo Qishen didn''t have time to react, and yanmiao''s body had been heavily pressed on him. Most importantly, the pressure is "Oh!" Huo Qishen''s face suddenly turned cyan. The whole face became distorted and ferocious because of the position pressed by yanmiao. "Yanmiao," he said gnashing his teeth, "I must have a grudge against you in my last life, so I''ve never had a good one since we first met!" Yan Miao quickly got up and looked at the red blood gradually seeping from Huo Qishen''s trousers. He felt guilty at the bottom of his eyes, but said awkwardly: "you deserve it. Don''t lie down and have to eavesdrop on my phone... Huo Qishen, your chrysanthemums are really disabled. Don''t blame me. It''s all your own fault." With that, yanmiao turned and walked outside the ward, calling Huo Qishen''s attending doctor to come and take a look at him again. "Yanmiao, I''ve provoked Fang Xiran in my fucking life. A woman is not enough to pierce her heart. Damn it, see a doctor who is ill and offends you..." Behind him came the voice of Huo Qishen gnashing his teeth because he endured the pain on the chrysanthemum. ¡­¡­ Wang Yueqiang deployed the samples according to the matching table, and occasionally took a subconscious look at Li Yunze, who was talking to the deputy director of the research room. I don''t know why. Now that the research has entered the third stage, he always feels something wrong. Mingming didn''t make any mistakes. Indeed, it was consistent with some things Zheng Hao said, but it happened that he always felt that after entering the third stage, the sample was different from what he thought. Is he thinking too much? Or is it because the research may fail because of variables?! Wang Yueqiang thought, put the smear under the microscope and thought about meeting Zheng Hao back to see the situation. After Li Yunze finished his work, he drove to Shuya. Why did Ning see Li Yunze''s car as soon as he got off work? After greeting Dr. Liu who came out with him, he got on the car. "Eat out today!" Li Yunze looked at the yellow leaves falling from the hood. "It''s the best weather to eat hot pot..." he said. He looked at he Yining, "huh?" "OK." He Yining didn''t have much emotional response. He Yining started the hot pot in advance and sighed softly "Ace is expected to come back at the weekend." He Yining said softly, "call me at that time and say you brought one by one gifts for us." "The little girl hasn''t called us for more than a week..." "Well, she''s been a little wild lately." Why should I hang my eyes. Because the research hasn''t come out yet, I went to primary school one by one and went abroad directly. He Yining also has her own thoughts. She thinks about it and turns back to study. She wants to resign and go abroad to accompany her to school one by one "Come back one by one for the new year this year?" Li Yunze asked. Why should Ning look at him, "this year?" "Yining, there was no accident. The research results came out years ago." Li Yunze looked at he Yining. "After applying for patent protection, everything will be settled." "Oh..." he Yining took back his sight and silently answered. Li Yunze frowned slightly, "do you have anything you want to say to me?" He sighed, "Yining, more than two years..." He Yining continued to be silent. When Li Yunze spoke, she clearly thought about something, but she didn''t know what to think when she thought seriously. This has been the case for a long time, and she is used to it now The weather in late autumn has been mixed with the smell of cold. Hot pot shops often start at this time, and business will be hot. It''s hard to find one. As usual, Li Yunze and he Yining were too silent at dinner, which always made the air repressed. "Yining, does time smooth everything or kill people''s will?" Li Yunze suddenly asked. Why did Ning Jiacai''s action slightly stagnate? He looked at Li Yunze through the heat, and the corners of his mouth moved back and forth. Finally, he took back his sight, Jiacai and continued to eat silently She didn''t want to answer his question, but she forgot the emotion she should have when facing this question ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin sat on the private plane from Los Angeles To Monterey, slightly tilted his head, looked out of the small window with narrow eyes, and gradually deepened his sight. Because of silence, now star is gradually "amnesia". Originally, he was going to return star to Jian Mo, but unexpectedly, there was a problem with Jian Mo''s fetus. If you want to stop the situation like star, it is likely that you will want the life in Jane Mo''s stomach Instead of being cruel to her, he thought of other ways to solve it. It''s just that Beichen is so smart... He almost found star. Shi Shaoqin took back his sight, looked at the time, and asked Qingqing to fly with the little guy from Linshi to Ottawa. It should be half the journey by now. "Qin Shao." Shi Shaoqin looked at the speaker. The man handed the report sorted out in his hand to Shi Shaoqin, "it seems that there are many people staring at Li Yunze''s research in the dark of Los Angeles..." Shi Shaoqin looked at it indifferently, his eyes were deep, and slowly said, "so many people are staring at......" his good-looking lips crossed with a touch of awe inspiring, "it seems that it is related to the research of Li Yunhao at the beginning As soon as the man listened, his eyes lit up, "that''s the research that can extract higher purity and even increase the yield by 30 to 50%?" He paused. "Do we need someone to start?" Chapter 1544 Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak immediately, just slightly tilted his head and looked out of the small window The radian aperture shows a thin light, as if it were hope and a guide out of the darkness. The man had been waiting and dared not disturb Shi Shaoqin''s thoughts. The Qin Shao they know, except for a star, who dares to go against the scale?! After a while, Shi Shaoqin slowly withdrew his thoughts and said softly, "so many people are staring, it shows that the results haven''t come out yet..." He looked back at the person waiting. "Wait a minute, just let La keep an eye on it." "Yes." After the man answered, he went to his seat and continued to look at the information from Los Angeles. Is there anything to deal with. After the private plane arrived in Monterey, Shi Shaoqin took the airline plane directly to Ottawa without making any stop. Star''s current situation, let him and Qingqing together, he is not at ease. However, Shi Shaoqin, who was concerned about star at the moment, didn''t expect that he thought he had cheated Gu Beichen when he was at Los Angeles Airport, but he didn''t expect to be followed by him to Ottawa or even to the hotel. If Xiao Mu of XK hadn''t "stolen" star, Gu Beichen would have found star this time. Therefore, in this world, everything has a cause and a result. Gu Beichen''s promise to Xiao Mu has not been fulfilled for the time being. Xiao Mu will naturally make him uncomfortable It is also natural for the so-called father and son to repay their debts. Gu Beichen didn''t find star and finally left Ottawa lost. Originally, he thought it was just Jian Mo who thought Xiao Yan was alive, but it turned out... He also hoped it was true. Gu Beichen kept chasing Shi Shaoqin all the way, came with a glimmer of hope, and finally left with disappointment and anger The premature death of the youngest son before birth is a great blow to Jian mo. isn''t it for Gu Beichen? ¡­¡­ Supply and demand restaurant is a famous seafood restaurant in Ottawa. Star likes to eat shrimp and risotto, which satisfy him to the greatest extent. While eating, the little guy looked at Shi Shaoqin who was talking to Xiao Mu with big eyes. His dark eyes hadn''t left Shi Shaoqin for a second. He was afraid that he wouldn''t see his stone in the blink of an eye. "Since Lord Xiao has given star ten years," Shi Shaoqin said slowly, "then I also want to have a time with Lord Xiao." Xiao Mu smiled, "two years." Shi Shaoqin was slightly stunned. Unexpectedly, Xiao Mu directly saw through his mind. "Jian Mo''s problem now is not the wrong fetal position, but the subsequent pregnancy reaction left by you drugging her..." Xiao Mu slowly said, "now not only her amniotic fluid is useless to star, but even the progesterone produced will have some negative effects on star... So you dare not take risks." Shi Shaoqin is not surprised that an XK in charge of powerful intelligence will know this. "In two years, Jian Mo''s baby is almost as big as star..." Xiao Mu put down his glass. "As for the residual side effects on star, if I can''t eliminate them, the ten-year appointment will be invalid." Shi Shaoqin sat on the steps of the ancient castle of Mo palace, thinking about the promise given by Xiao Mu, and watched Star fiddle with the suntanned melon seeds there. Xi Cheng is also stepping up the development of drugs that can remove silence from star, but his ability is obviously a little difficult. Now with the addition of XK, the residue on star will be easier to untie. After all, XK controls the intelligence of the world and can find the person you want the fastest. For example, the legendary descendant of ghost doctor. "Stone..." star grabbed a handful of dried melon seeds in his hand, padded it and walked to Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin spread his hand with a smile. Star happily put the melon seeds in his hand in the palm of his hand, and then looked at him pleasantly. He patted his little hand first. "Thank you..." Shi Shaoqin said softly, looking at star''s eyes, with an undisguised gratitude. Originally, he wanted to send star back to Mo''er this time. Now he can steal more time together. For him It''s a gift! "These melon seeds will be dried again tomorrow," said Shi Shaoqin. "Shall we send some to Mo''er?" Star is leaning towards his small head. Obviously, he is at a loss for this person because of his constant "amnesia". Shi Shaoqin felt his hand and gently rubbed the agate stone hanging on star''s wrist. "That''s a very important person for stone and star!" Star didn''t quite understand the meaning of ''important'', but felt Shi Shaoqin''s hope at the moment. He immediately grinned and nodded with a smile. The wind is blowing gently, and the waves are beating the white beach one after another. The air is full of the smell of sea water. There was the sound of seagulls in his ears. Shi Shaoqin looked at star and ran to the sunflower side, and his sight turned around Under the wind, the sunflower swings orderly with the wind and waves, the golden flower plate swings there, and star''s small body swings back and forth. The ink palace is dark and exists like ink But today''s ink palace has sunflowers facing the sun and stars as pure as white paper. Shi Shaoqin slowly narrowed his eyes and looked at star. In his mind, he couldn''t help thinking of the situation that Jian Mo wanted to plant sunflowers with J when he was in Mo palace Jane Mo wanted to keep the sunshine for him, so he made a star. As he said, the world has a cause and a result. Whether it''s him, Gu Beichen, Jian mo... Or, today''s Li Yunze and he Yining. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles, Emperor''s large shopping supermarket. Li Yunze pushed the shopping cart. Why would he rather pick out the ingredients and spices for tomorrow''s barbecue. "They''ll come tomorrow and don''t know how long it''ll take," he Yining said, putting several boxes of steak and mutton in the shopping cart. "Is tomorrow OK?" Li Yunze knew why he would rather ask about small samples. "The barbecue is in the ventilation greenhouse on the roof, which doesn''t affect it." "Yes." Turn around and take things. "Yining..." "Yes!" Why should Ning answer the voice faintly. Li Yunze looked at her deeply and wanted to say something. However, seeing her light appearance, he didn''t know what to say. After they finished shopping, they simply ate nearby and went home. Marinate the things to be pickled together and put them in the refrigerator. All of this is obviously the most common thing in an ordinary family, but for the two at the moment, there is a growing sense of alienation. "Well, I''ll wash it first..." why did Ning zhe turn around and walk upstairs. "Yining!" He Yining stopped and just wanted to turn around to see Li Yunze. Suddenly he felt a strong wind coming. Then, Li Yunze held him in his arms from behind Chapter 1545 He Yining''s body suddenly stiffened, and the center of his eyebrows twisted slightly. At the same time, he subconsciously wanted to break free. But she finally held back. "Li Yunze..." he Yining''s voice was a little hoarse. Li Yunze looked at why he would rather be like this. He didn''t feel it in his heart. He''s a doctor, but I can''t tell at the moment. It''s better to be afraid of him subconsciously, so the body instinctively resists, or because she''s depressed and sick?! Silence, two people shouted each other''s name, as before, silence. Now, silence has become a way of communication between two people For more than a year, Li Yunze tried to say something to he Yining every time, but she didn''t know whether it was intentional or subconscious. He Yining doesn''t seem to stick to Li Yunze as before except for necessary things This feeling is terrible for Li Yunze. "Well, I went up and washed it." Why would you rather open your mouth gently. The implication is whether Li Yunze can let her go. Li Yunze didn''t let go, but the circle was tighter "Yining, are we going to do this all the time?" Li Yunze asked, gritting his teeth. He Yining was puzzled at the bottom of her eyes. She thought about it and wanted to say: No, I will go abroad to accompany her when the research is over. But after thinking about it, I still didn''t say. She doesn''t know why she doesn''t say it now. It''s probably because she''s afraid of affecting the mood of tomorrow''s barbecue?! After all, she didn''t want Li Yunze to be embarrassed anyway. Li Yunze found that he Yining began to be in a daze because he fell into his own thoughts. He couldn''t help frowning more and more tightly. After a while, Li Yunze let go of he Yining. Seeing that she didn''t move, he called softly. "Yining?!" "Huh?" He Yining looked blankly at Li Yunze. When he looked at his tight eyes, he seemed to suddenly remember something and said, "Oh, I said I''d go up and wash." After a pause, she looked back and walked upstairs Li Yunze stood in place and looked at he Yining until her figure disappeared from her eyes. She couldn''t come back for a long time. Something keeps hitting in his mind. He doesn''t want to think about bad places, but recently, he increasingly feels that Yining is wrong The ''buzzing'' of the mobile phone vibrated in his pocket and suddenly woke Li Yunze. He took it out, saw it was Gu Beichen''s, rubbed the center of his eyebrows and picked it up, "huh?" "Bad mood?" Gu Beichen seems to be used to Li Yunze now. "Nothing." Li Yunze said, "what''s the matter?" "Chenyu and Shaochen''s wedding is scheduled..." Gu Beichen said, "at the end of the month." "Well, good." He sat down on the sofa and looked at the position of the sofa. "Li yunning, I feel very sick......" Gu Beichen frowned, "what''s going on?" "She is always easily absent-minded. The most important thing is that after being absent-minded, she can''t remember why she is absent-minded..." Li Yunze said, frowning and tightening. "This kind of disease is different from Jane Mo''s single depression. It may be one or several kinds of depression piled up together..." Gu Beichen experienced the depression of Jian Mo due to the loss of Xiao Yan, and can understand Li Yunze''s mood at the moment. It''s a kind of thing that will be more troublesome if the patient doesn''t feel sick and others show too much. Besides, why is it possible that there is more than one Li Yunze rubbed his forehead anxiously, and his voice was not calm. "It''s a heart disease!" Gu Beichen''s ink pupil became deep. He looked at Jian Mo who was walking with J in the yard. He slowly opened his mouth: "Yining''s heart medicine, only you!" "I know..." Li Yunze didn''t go on halfway. He didn''t talk to anyone about Yining. Now, Yining is not only worried about him, but also his big brother. And all this, in the final analysis, is him Because Yining loved him, he felt guilty and pressed everything in his heart. Because I love him, I know what I will face together. Finally, I try because I don''t give up Also because of her love for him, now she imprisoned herself in a dark house and forgot what emotional leakage should be like! Why rather stand at the corner of the stairs, holding the handrail and gradually grasping it, looking at Li Yunze''s direction... Although there is no one in her position. The mouth gradually pricked up, and there was resistance in the eyes She''s not sick! How could she be ill? She''s fine. She can see a doctor and usher in many small lives. Where is she sick?! She is a doctor herself. Isn''t she sure if she is ill?! He Yining''s face was a little pale, and his hand holding the handrail was getting tighter and tighter. Because he exerted too much force, his knuckles were white. She dared not continue to listen, for fear that she would be brainwashed by Li Yunze and thought she was really ill. Why did Ning zhe turn around with his mouth and subconsciously release the light action, so that Li Yunze didn''t hear the movement and went back to the room "Yunze..." Gu Beichen saw the wind blowing outside and turned to take a coat and walked out. "Do you think it''s just Yining this time anyway?" "Yes." Li Yunze replied, "Beichen, there are some things I thought I couldn''t cross over, but later I saw you and Jane Mo, I don''t think I should tangle in the past." After a pause, he continued, "I''m sure there are no gullies I can''t cross, only enough love... Yining is very important to me!" Li Yunze''s eyebrows slightly coagulated and said, "I love her!" "Then stay with her well. As long as you are by her side and let her feel you, she will be well..." Gu Beichen said after seeing J running over and handing him his clothes. "Yining''s persistence in you is subconscious. As long as you are by her side, she will have self-healing power." No one knows this better than Li Yunze and Gu Beichen. No matter how big a setback, as long as Li Yunze gives him a little good face, she will forget all the difficulties before and continue to start Those are imperceptibly influenced by people. They will not change because they are ill! ¡­¡­ Al Institute. Wang Yueqiang stood outside the temperature control room, looking at several groups of samples cultivated in different periods, and gradually lost his mind. What went wrong? Wang Yueqiang frowned and thought about the results of several times after he entered phase II over the past year. Nothing wrong, nothing wrong But the smear from the first batch of samples should not be like that! Thinking, Wang Yueqiang took back his sight, left the temperature control room and went to the canteen for a late night snack Wang Yueqiang sat down in a place and looked around. There was no one at the nearby table. He took out his mobile phone and sent a text message to Zheng Hao: I feel that there is something wrong with the research Chapter 1546 Zheng Hao looked at the message, first thought about it, then frowned and replied: what do you mean? Wang Yueqiang took a sip of soup. It seemed that if he was inadvertently playing with his mobile phone, his ears listened to whether there were footsteps nearby: I think it is somewhat different from the sample that should come out of the research project you gave me. After thinking about it, Wang Yueqiang sent another one: however, this is just my guess. After all, I can''t reach the level of Li Yunze. I can only analyze it according to the ratio between pharmacology. Zheng Hao gently tapped his fingers on the desktop and looked at the content of the message with a pair of hanging eyes. His eyebrows could not help but tighten slightly. We have been waiting for this for more than two years. Seeing that we have entered the last moment, we can''t tolerate any mistakes. Zheng Hao stopped beating his fingers and replied: do you have a chance to get the sample? Wang Yueqiang frowned: impossible! Now entering the critical period, no one is allowed to enter except the people in the laboratory, that is, as long as the samples are lost, they are the people in the laboratory. Zheng Hao closed his eyes and his mind was spinning rapidly. If you scare the snake because of a little doubt, it''s not a wise move Slowly opening his eyes, Zheng Hao asked: if you want to further confirm your guess, what do you think you should do? Wang Yueqiang replied immediately: the sample will come out in more than a month, and the slowest is two months. "It''s the end of the year..." Zheng Hao whispered softly. Instead of replying to Wang Yueqiang, he called Meng Yi. "Huh?" After recounting what Wang Yueqiang said, Zheng Hao asked, "Meng Yi, do you think we should wait or..." "Wait!" Meng Yi spoke faintly, sat in the car and looked out of the window. I don''t know if it''s a coincidence. He stopped at a side road not far from Shuya hospital, which was where Li Yunze and why Ning kissed under their umbrella on a rainy day more than two years ago "But just in case..." Zheng Hao was in a hurry. "Whether it''s just in case or not, it''s not a good time to do it now." Meng Yi took back his sight and fell in front. A gust of wind blew and a layer of old leaves fell under the lamp. "If the research is really wrong, even if Wang Yueqiang followed the research, there is no technology to steal." "If I wait so long and still don''t get anything, I''ll go straight to Li Yunze and finish it!" Zheng Hao didn''t have Meng Yi''s patience, so he got dry directly. Meng Yi chuckled, "as long as Li Yunhao''s research was not taken to hell at the beginning, Li Yunze who got the two manuscripts will study sooner or later..." paused, "don''t say that it can be regarded as Li Yunhao''s last wish, even if it''s just a research, for a medical genius like Li Yunze, if you get it, you naturally want to do it." "Hope!" Zheng Hao sighed. Meng Yi narrowed his eyes slightly, turned his head and looked again at the place where Li Yunze and he Yining kissed under the rain, and slowly said, "if Li Yunze really loves he Yining, he would also want to get this research out..." "You mean," Zheng Hao pondered slightly, "now Li Yunhao''s thing is the obstacle of two people. After studying it, it can be regarded as fulfilling Li Yunhao''s wishes and giving each other peace of mind." "Maybe..." Meng Yi took back his eyes and smiled. "Wait, what you deserve won''t disappear because of time." "OK." Zheng Hao hung up after winning and replied to Wang Yueqiang: wait for the result! After Wang Yueqiang returned the word "good", he deleted all the SMS. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze went upstairs after working from the laboratory. As usual, he went to the room to see why Yining In the darkness, only the light in the corridor reflected in. He Ning kissed her gently and sighed. If the touch made his heart ache, so that he didn''t find why Ning''s eyelashes trembled slightly. Yining, will I see you again? Li Yunze closed his eyes sadly and got up. After seeing why he Ning for a while, he turned and left the bedroom. At the moment when the door closed, he Yining slowly opened his eyes and gently fanned his lower eyes. In the dark, the black and white eyes were full of panic at a loss. Hand, unconsciously clenched the quilt corner. He Yining only felt as if there were many things colliding in his mind. He wanted to calm down, but he couldn''t calm down. It''s like, if you''re calm, how can you calm down again? She''s not sick! She didn''t He Yining roared in his heart, and his hand holding the quilt was getting tighter and tighter. The next day, the late autumn is approaching, and the winter sunshine comes a little late, but it is still warm. The roof of the villa is made into an air garden. The glass can be lifted and lowered. In summer, the wind looks at the moon. In winter, in the temperature control, it is still like spring. People familiar with Shuya hospital, as long as they are not on duty, have come. Barbecue is a lively activity. We bake while chatting, play cards and games. The sound of joy is always filled with the air. Yanmiao took the sliced meat from Li Yunze and fought a cold war inexplicably. The knife worker, the most serious obsessive-compulsive disorder, can''t find anything wrong. "Seriously, your scalpel is very good, and you don''t need to use it in your life?" The corner of Yan Miao''s mouth grinned, "a little seeping." Li Yunze ignored her, but looked at he Yining deeply. "What''s the matter? I think you''re wrong?" Yanmiao looked sideways along Li Yunze''s line of sight... He Yining and Shuya''s nurses didn''t know what to say and smiled very happily. Yanmiao frowned and Yining smiled like this. She hadn''t seen it for at least two years. "I''m very happy today!" Yan Miao breathed a long sigh of relief. "Li Yunze, I think I can do more collective activities in the future." Li Yunze looked at yanmiao and didn''t speak. Even yanmiao didn''t find Yining''s emotional illness. She usually hides well, or is her emotional illness just aimed at him? No No disease is only for one person! Yanmiao just said, it should be that Yining didn''t smile like this even when facing her Yining heard him talking on the phone with Beichen last night, or did he realize something, so he wanted to be so "happy" today? Is it to dispel his doubts or to prove to herself that she doesn''t have emotional illness?! The barbecue continues. He Yining will look at the time and tell you more about it, and then bring some dishes. "I''ll go!" Li Yunze came forward, "you and everyone continue to talk." "Let''s go!" Why would you rather look at Li Yunze with a smile. Li Yunze raised his eyebrows, took he Yining''s hand and walked downstairs. Behind him, there was a sound of laughter and ridicule Just turned downstairs, he Yining wanted to get rid of his held hand, "you go to the lab and I''ll get the vegetables from the fridge." "Yining..." Li Yunze didn''t let go of why Yining. "Huh?" He Yining looked at Li Yunze in a panic, afraid of what he was going to say, and began to break free. Li Yunze still didn''t let go, but said slowly with deep eyes: "tell me, do you still love me?" Chapter 1547 He Yining''s face suddenly changed, and she even began to have difficulty breathing. Looking at Li Yunze''s line of sight, there was an emotion that was not resistance, but her behavior was resistance. Li Yunze''s heart was a little heavy, and even screwed together. Yining really got a serious emotional illness Li Yunze still didn''t loosen he Yining. He even took her into his arms and said, "Yining, everything will be fine... I won''t leave you, I won''t leave you, no matter when..." Li Yunze''s eyes were slightly scarlet. He kept saying "I won''t leave you". From the initial forbearance to the softness behind, every time, it was like a magic sound through his brain. He Yining, who was already irritable, gradually stopped struggling, and then became quiet. Li Yunze closed his eyes and his chest cramped, making it difficult for him to breathe. Wanting to be with him is Yining''s obsession, which seeps into bone and blood. Therefore, in the first year, the strange meeting between the two people made her gradually forget how to face it, so that she kept denying herself, resulting in a very serious emotional illness without knowing it. Even her subconscious concealment, even he didn''t find it, only thought that the ravine between the two people now led to it. Li Yunze slowly opened her eyes and let go of he Yining. She has recovered her calm appearance. "Go get the dishes and I''ll go to the laboratory to have a look." "Yes." Why rather faint answer, turned and went to the kitchen. Li Yunze looked at he Yining''s back and looked deeper and deeper. Yining, I will cure you. We still have such a long way to go together and so many hurdles to cross together Without me, you will lose direction, and without you, I will feel lonely and incomplete! ¡­¡­ The barbecue didn''t end until more than 4 p.m. "I''m gone too..." yanmiao looked at Li Yunze walking towards he Yining after everyone left. "Yining, are you ok?" He Yining nodded. Yan Miao sighed and hugged he Yining. "I believe you, you can." Why Ning pulled a faint smile from the corners of her mouth, looked at yanmiao and forgot to move after he left. Li Yunze just looked at her and didn''t disturb her thoughts. He just thought about how he should start to slowly transform her emotional illness into a normal emotion. The mobile phone vibrated in time in his pocket. Li Yunze took it out and saw that it was calling one by one. He answered the video phone with a smile at the corners of his mouth. "Dad, mom, why can''t I get through?" Asked one by one, wiping his wet hair. "Mom, the phone is in the house. We''re in the yard now." Li Yunze said and walked to he Yining. "This time on your side should not be the time to take a bath..." "I just went to the relay race with my little friend." One by one, the more beautiful girl who had come out fanned her eyes, completely smart. He Yining turned his eyes and heard the voices one by one. Obviously, his mood was much softer. "Hi, mom, do you miss me? Mmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmm 11. I don''t know the current situation of he Yining and Li Yunze. Although they have had video phone calls with each other for more than two years, there is no chance for the three people to meet together. One by one, they feel that they are caught in a magic spell that can''t be in the same frame. Either dad is busy or mom is busy! Anyway... It''s strange. He Yining chatted with one by one and occasionally talked about Li Yunze, but one by one at a young age didn''t find that his mother''s expression was a little strange every time he talked about Li Yunze. Of course, the most important thing is that she subconsciously feels that her father and mother are very dear to each other. "I brought you a present!" One by one raised his eyebrows, "Dad, guess what?" "Why didn''t I guess?" Why would you rather eat the corners of your mouth. One by one slightly tilted his head, "because mom can''t guess!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± He Yining was a little unhappy, but soon, such emotion disappeared again. Li Yunze didn''t let go of the change of he Yining''s Micro expression. For Yining, one by one and him are the most important people in her subconscious mind. Therefore, if you want Yining to slowly return to normal, you can only start with him and one by one. "It should be painting!" Li Yunze lightly opened his mouth and took on he Yining''s shoulder. Why Ning subconsciously wanted to get out of the way, but when he thought of looking at them one by one, he held back when he was about to move. "Dad, can''t you pretend you can''t guess?" He tooted his mouth one by one. Li Yunze smiled. "I remember several times before... Well, it should be three months ago. You told me on the phone that you suddenly wanted to learn painting again!" One is an uncertain child. She seems to be full of curiosity about everything, but she is not proficient in anything However, Li Yunze belongs to her daughter''s rich mentality. With her free development, she doesn''t have to be proficient in everything. Just find something she is interested in. Girls, just need a good character, is the best! "Forget it, anyway, I don''t expect you to guess..." said one by one, happily sitting cross legged on the sofa, "Dad, my year-end exam is over, do you come to play with your mother?" "Come back for the new year?" Li Yunze spoke. Why Ning glanced at Li Yunze with an unclear emotion in his heart and slightly clenched his hand. "Well..." one by one raised his eyes and thought, "good!" "Just in time, you can also come back and have a look at Xiaojie..." why did Ning switch off the topic. "Yes, I haven''t seen him for a long time. I''m too busy recently and haven''t talked to him on the phone!" "You seem a little cold to Xiao Jie now?" Why Ning asked with a little doubt. One by one grinned, "Mom, you don''t know... There are so many beautiful handsome men abroad. I found that I was too small and short-sighted before!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Why should Ning frown and listen to the endless talk one by one? The boy around him who looks like a doll and the teacher who makes people''s heart beat more than his father found that there is a big generation gap between himself and his daughter. "Is a male teacher as handsome as his father?" Li Yunze asked discontentedly, obviously jealous. "There must be!" One by one, he raised his eyebrows, saw Li Yunze sink his face and comforted, "but those are just casual. Dad is the first place in one''s heart and will never be replaced!" Then he put his small hands on his chest and kissed Li Yunze towards the mobile phone screen. Li Yunze only felt that his heart had melted. Holding he Yining''s hand, he unconsciously tightened it. When he looked at her, he didn''t know whether to say to her one by one or to her: "will the first position in his heart really not be replaced?" Chapter 1548 Why Ning subconsciously glanced at Li Yunze, his eyes were completely at a loss, as if he didn''t know what he was talking about "What a sight!" One by one protested, "Dad, you and mom are tired of being together every day. Why are you tired of being in front of me?" Li Yunze sighed secretly. The daughter is a sweet little cotton padded jacket, which has just warmed him. Now, can you stop interrupting so quickly and let your mother think about it? Why is Ning suddenly awakened by 11''s words, his lower lip, concerned about 11''s recent situation, and turned the topic again. Children will not be too persistent to problems, especially now they are uncertain. Soon, they are biased by the topic. After talking for a while, both sides hung up. "Would you like to take a walk nearby?" Li Yunze looked at the sky, "you see, the sunset is very good and there is no wind." "But I''m a little tired." Why rather shallow mouth, "I have to go to work tomorrow..." Li Yunze looked at her resistance, came forward and took her hand, "just go for a while!" He Yining wanted to refuse, but when he saw Li Yunze holding her hand, he nodded inexplicably. The setting sun shrouded the two figures and pulled out a long shadow on the ground He Yining occasionally looked at the hands held by two people, and the corners of his mouth gradually tightened. She''s a little uncomfortable. She''s afraid of such discomfort. It seems that she will instinctively resist what?! "Yining..." Li Yunze opened his mouth gently, trying to disturb the thoughts of why Ning at the moment. Why Ning glanced at Li Yunze and listened to him ask: "when will pregnant women have pregnancy reaction and how long will it generally occur?" He Yining gently fanned his eyes and subconsciously replied, "it''s usually about six weeks, and it will slowly disappear in twelve weeks..." "Then if..." Li Yunze walked around the villa area with he Yining''s hand, asking her some knowledge about obstetrics and Gynecology, and occasionally asking about some other departments, from simple to difficult. Why was Ning Xu distracted and forgot the impulse to resist at the beginning? Li Yunze asked, and she answered. Li Yunze''s eyes looked at he Yining deeply. When talking about these, there would be a light like nothing in the bottom of his eyes. "Yining..." "Huh?" Why Ning slightly brightened his eyes and looked at Li Yunze. Li Yunze stopped, looked at he Yining with burning eyes and asked, "if there is an operation or a case that needs you to complete with me, can you?" He Yining gently fanned his eyes, and his eyes were at a loss. "Whether it''s any operation or case!" Li Yunze asked, "do you think you can cooperate with me?" "Will it involve the patient''s life?" Why Ning slightly tilted his head, obviously a little confused. Li Yunze nodded and looked at he Yining''s line of sight becoming deep, "yes, it will involve the patient''s life!" He Yining gently clenched his hand, which was not pulled. In the sight of Li Yunze, he nodded to the end, "yes!" "Remember what you said today..." Li Yunze slowly opened his mouth and raised his hand, trying to tease he Yining''s hair slightly disturbed by the wind. However, the hand hasn''t touched yet. Why should I subconsciously step back a little. Li Yunze''s hands were still frozen in the air. He Yining seemed to be embarrassed under some embarrassment. He didn''t dare to see him floating around. Li Yunze smiled at the corners of his mouth and continued to explore his hands. Why did Yining tidy up his hair. This time, he Yining didn''t get out of the way Li Yunze is very clear that now he must let Yining face him directly and gradually break the frozen things a little bit Otherwise, she can''t return to normal! ¡­¡­ Los Angeles prison. Qu Weiwei looked at Xia Xiao packing up her things, with a treacherous light in her eyes. Unlike just being jailed, both Xia Xiao and Qu Weiwei have lost their luster, as if they were several years old, especially Qu Weiwei. "Xia Xiao, I''ll go out tomorrow... Ah?!" Wang Xia swayed her strong body to Xia Xiao. "Oh, I''m really a little reluctant." Xia Xiao was released more than four months in advance. From the collapse at the beginning to the calm later, and then to seeing Qu Weiwei''s sharp appearance, she felt that even if she couldn''t start her life again, she could at least not let herself live in tragedy. "Sister Xia, thank you for your care for nearly three years. After going out, I''ll go and see Xiaoyuan." Xia Xiao said. Xiaoyuan is Wang Xia''s daughter. Because her father died of a crime, Wang Xia has always been in prison. Her daughter has always lived with her grandmother. Without saying anything, Wang Xia patted Xia Xiao on the shoulder, "remember not to look back when you go out, just go straight ahead..." "Sister Xie Xia!" Xia Xiao smiled with gratitude and came forward to hug Wang Xia. There is a strange smell in the cell. Every time someone is released, the remaining people are uncomfortable and will make a few sarcastic remarks. But Wang Xia blessed everyone, and naturally everyone had no idea. Qu Weiwei sat by the bed and looked at Xia Xiao strangely. Xia Xiao subconsciously looked at Wang Xia when she turned around. Looking at her, she saw Qu Weiwei get up and come over "Get to know each other," Qu Weiwei felt. "I wish you a good walk." Xia Xiao drooped her eyes and Qu Weiwei''s hand in designing jewelry was already a little like the old lady. She didn''t shake hands with Qu Weiwei, but looked up at her and said, "I''ll go on well." Not allowing herself to live a tragedy does not mean that she can forgive the person who made her tragedy. Qu Weiwei withdrew her hand, "Xia Xiao," she slowly attached herself, with a strange smile in her mouth and said in a voice that can only be heard by two people, "do you think Li Yunze will let you go after you go out?" Xia Xiao frowned slightly and listened to Qu Weiwei continue: "the most important thing is whether Cheng Guangying will want you? I''m afraid... After he went out, there have been several women outside? Think about it, has he come to see you?" Xia Xiao''s face suddenly changed. She knew Qu Weiwei was intentional, but she just couldn''t help being influenced by her. Qu Weiwei got up slowly, and the smile on her face fell on Xia Xiao''s eyes, looking ferocious. "Good luck..." Qu Weiwei didn''t say anything more and turned back to her bed. Li Yunze, he Yining... I really want to know what you look like now. Waiting for me to go out, I must have a good look. Li Yunhao''s death is horizontal among you. What will you become ha-ha! Qu Weiwei smiled at the corner of her mouth and filled the whole cell with cold ¡­¡­ The setting sun disappeared on the horizon, and the air was gradually filled with a cold breath. "Go back..." Li Yunze rubbed his cool hand and led her back with a smile. Why rather quietly follow Li Yunze''s steps, her eyes drooped slightly, and some subconsciously counted steps. Li Yunze glanced at why Yining. When he took back his sight, his eyes were slightly deep. "Yining, do you believe it? Everything... Will be fine!" Chapter 1549 He Yining listened to Li Yunze''s words with a daze in his eyes. Li Yunze didn''t give her time to understand. He just added the smile at the corners of his mouth, gently clenched her hand and walked forward Yining, everything will be all right. I will always be by your side and cross this camp. Nothing can stop us in my life. The next day, it was cold. The sky was clear yesterday, but it was overcast early this morning. The sky was full of thick clouds, blocking the light of the sun and without heating. Li Yunze sent he Yining to work. Seeing that she was going to get off, he subconsciously caught her. Why should I rather wait quietly and forget to ask Li Yunze when I slightly fan my eyelashes? "I''ll pick you up after work, huh?" "You don''t have to come. I can take a taxi back." Why should I answer calmly. Li Yunze gently stroked he Yining''s face and didn''t ignore her instantly tense body. "The research institute is not too busy recently. I have to wait for the sample to come out..." he said quietly, just smiled softly, "there''s nothing in the hospital without the surgery I have to go to." Why should I nod at the corner of my mouth. "Go to work!" Li Yunze withdrew his hand. He Ning turned and nodded silently. Li Yunze looked at her like this. He didn''t take back his sight until his figure disappeared from his eyes. He turned the car and left Shuya ¡­¡­ "Doctor he, did Li Shao send you here again?" Doctor Liu was holding the lunch box in his hand. "I just went to wash the lunch box and saw you reluctant to part." Why Ning smiled, "yes, he sent me here." "Oh, I envy you." Doctor Liu sighed, "it''s really not easy for people like Li Shao to be devoted. Women, sometimes in this life, they don''t care how rich they are, but actually they care whether their men are good to themselves..." He Yining smiled again and listened to Dr. Liu saying "come on, come on" there for a while. Now, no matter what others say about her and Li Yunze, she seems to have no feeling of heartache or happiness. He Yining gently touched the corner of his mouth and remembered that when Li Yunze and Gu Beichen talked on the phone the night before yesterday, she said she might have an emotional illness Emotional illness, which is obviously caused by the accumulation of too many emotions, but now she is very calm! "Dr. he, Dr. he..." Dr. Liu gently pushed him Yining, and when he saw her come back to her senses, he glanced discontentedly. "When it comes to Li Shao, you''re in a trance... Alas, you don''t show love and happiness like you." He Yining looked at Dr. Liu with blurred eyes. What was she talking about? Why... She doesn''t understand? Dr. Liu Xu is a little jealous because he Yining is distracted when he mentions Li Yunze. I didn''t continue to talk and get busy with my own affairs. There were no new pregnant women in the morning, and there was no need to give birth. He Yining read for a while and arrived at noon. Suddenly, he Ning''s heart beat faster. He Yining swallowed it secretly, then calmed down a little. He picked up his mobile phone and saw that it was Jin shaosi. He picked up, "ah Si?" "I just got to the hospital. If I''m not busy, let''s have lunch together?" Jin shaosi''s soft voice came. "Well, good!" Why should I rather answer, "I''ll come right away..." He Yining hung up the phone, talked to the people in the office and went to the parking lot to find Mr. Jin. Because why Ning had to go to work in the afternoon, they ate at a large stall next to the hospital. Jin shaosi has not returned to Los Angeles for several months. One is that there have been some situations within Jin''s group recently, and he must take charge of it. The other, he was a little angry Even now, Yining still doesn''t want to leave with him. "Yining?" "Huh?" Why would you rather come back suddenly. Jin shaosi frowned invisibly. He was more and more nervous about why he Yining was absent-minded. "I said, I brought gifts to you and him one by one." Jin shaosi said, "it''s in the car. I''ll get it back to you later." "Oh..." why should Ning answer the voice, droop his eyes, and the action of clamping vegetables shows the wooden nature under the machinery. Looking at such he Yining, Jin shaosi had a faint anger in the bottom of his eyes. Such anger, he must also find a place to vent With a bang, a heavy punch fell on Li Yunze''s face. Jin shaosi looked coldly at Li Yunze, whose body was slightly tilted by him, and sneered, "Li Yunze, from the beginning, I shouldn''t give in... Even if Yi Ning would blame me!" Li Yunze straightened up slowly and rubbed the corner of his mouth with his hand, where blood was spilled because of the broken skin of his teeth. On the rooftop of the hospital, the wind is chilly because of the increasingly cloudy day. A tingling tingling sensation came from the corner of his mouth. Li Yunze looked at shaosi Jin and blamed himself, "this fist should be peaceful." Li Yunze looked at major Jin, wiped the blood from the corner of his mouth and went to the roof. "Jin shaosi, Yining will become like this, which is not what I want." Li Yunze closed his eyes, but he couldn''t hide the pain overflowing from his body. "I don''t want to shirk my responsibility, but there are some things that I can''t do at first." No one can easily say that they can let go of what has not happened to them After all, I can''t feel it, can I? Even if a person who has nothing to do with himself commits suicide in front of him, no one can ignore him, not to mention his own brother?! "I just didn''t expect Yining to punish myself in this way because of my attitude and what has happened." Li Yunze slowly opened his eyes, and the fundus of his eyes was scarlet. "Didn''t expect?" Jin shaosi sneered and looked at Li Yunze''s sadness without any sympathy. "Li Yunze, you''ll kill Yining sooner or later!" "No!" Li Yunze turned around and stared at Jin shaosi, "I''ll cure her. I''m her heart disease... Then I''m her heart medicine!" The corners of Jin shaosi''s mouth moved back and forth, trying to refute, but it was also very clear that there was no way to refute. The two men confronted each other on the rooftop of the hospital, as if two wild animals were about to attack in order to compete for territory, full of danger. "Li Yunze, can I still trust you?" Jin shaosi finally asked. Li Yunze''s eyes didn''t blink. "In this life, I have to be better. There''s nothing that can stop me from being with her!" "OK, I''ll trust you again..." Jin shaosi''s eyes were cold. "If you can''t make Yining happy, you won''t want to see her again in your life!" After his words, Jin shaosi coldly withdrew his sight. Just as he wanted to turn around, he heard an excited voice from below. "Shaosi, we are so lucky that we can see..." Chapter 1550 Jin shaosi frowned and looked at the place where the voice came from. He saw that Fang Xi ran slightly tilted his head and waved to him. Fang Xiran, who withdrew his military uniform, is now wearing narrow leg jeans and a medium and long woolen coat. His beautiful short hair is sassy. The whole person looks a little less proud and more charming. Jin shaosi frowned a little tighter and subconsciously looked at Li Yunze. Li Yunze glanced at Fang Xiran, added a corner of his mouth to the tip of his tongue, and said coldly, "I didn''t know you would come to the hospital to find me. How could I inform her?" Jin shaosi withdrew his sight coldly and turned to walk under the roof. Li Yunze didn''t move. He just turned around and looked at Fang Xiran and saluted him playfully. He suddenly had a headache. "How did you know I was here?" After Jin shaosi went down, he asked coldly. "Fate!" Fang Xi ran raised his eyebrows. Jin shaosi''s eyes were slightly cold, "speak human words!" Fang Xiran was a little angry, which was different from her arrogance in front of others. In front of Jin shaosi, she was always a little Petite like a little daughter. "My brother is not feeling well recently. I''m resting here. I came back the day before yesterday and have a look today." "Well, keep reading!" Jin shaosi finished, and the one who copied the pocket with one hand wanted to cross Fang Xiran and leave. Fang Xiran looked sideways, completely ignoring Jin shaosi''s cold face, and just circled his arm, "I''ve just finished watching it. I''ll see the roof only when I hear something." "..." Jin shaosi stopped and looked at Fang Xiran holding his hand. Fang Xiran grinned and reluctantly let go of major Jin. "Are you fighting with Li Yunze on the roof?" Yes, but obviously, Fang Xiran is affirmative. Growing up in the army and not at home, Fang Xiran naturally has her extraordinary ability to be the instructor of the current reconnaissance company. Whether it''s fighting or Sanda, although it can''t be said to be the top of the whole reconnaissance company, it can definitely be ranked in the number. "Are you curious?" Jin shaosi sneered and continued to move forward. Fang Xiran followed, put his hands into his coat pocket, shrunk his neck and said, "in fact, I think everyone''s love is self-conscious. No matter what the situation is between Ning and Li Yunze, you are an outsider. No matter how much you care, you can''t care about other people''s family affairs." Jin shaosi''s steps have expanded a little. Unfortunately, his speed may not keep up with that of ordinary girls, but it takes no effort for Fang Xiran. "Why, are you still angry?" Fang Xi ran raised his eyebrow. "Actually, I''m talking about your heart. You know better than anyone why you can''t leave Li Yunze. Now Li Yunze can''t let go. Why you can''t let go... I say, don''t embarrass yourself." Jin shaosi''s deep eyes stopped and turned to Fang Xiran, as if he couldn''t understand the sentence behind her. "I mean, don''t make it difficult for you to look forward to what you can''t get and ignore what you can get..." Fang Xiran said, taking out his pocket and pointing at himself. "You said you?!" Jin shaosi said softly. There was a strange meaning in his voice. Fang Xi ran raised his eyebrows and smiled with confidence on his face. Jin shaosi sneered, "Fang Xiran, you haven''t heard that people are cheap. What you can easily get is not rare, and what you can''t get is the best." "I know!" Fang Xiran was serious, "so I think you are the best!" "..." Jin shaosi twitched uncontrollably at the corners of his mouth, "you really refresh my view of soldiers." "Soldiers are also human beings. There are all kinds of normal people, such as seven emotions and six desires and dead skin." Fang Xiran disagreed. "Besides, have you heard of the military ruffians? Now there are male military ruffians, naturally, there are female military ruffians... Me," she pointed to herself, "in order to get you," she smiled and pointed to major Jin, "so I''m a military ruffian now!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Jin shaosi frowned and looked at Fang Xiran. When he faced him, he always seemed to have endless energy and endless enthusiasm. Suddenly, he had the feeling to see why he Yining to Li Yunze when he was a child. Thinking of he Yining in the past and thinking of her now, Jin shaosi''s face suddenly sank. He was too lazy to confront Fang Xiran. He turned and opened the door and got on the car. Just wanted to close the door, but was suddenly strongly stopped. Then Fang Xi ran followed up. "Let''s have dinner together!" Fang Xiran said with a smile, "I haven''t been back to Los Angeles for a long time. This weather is most suitable for hot pot." Jin shaosi twisted his eyebrows and looked at Fang Xiran. Lu Fan in the driver''s seat was different from Jin shaosi''s mood at the moment, but the corners of his mouth smiled. Compared with he Yining who can''t get it and his heart can''t be on the boss, he feels that Miss Fang and the boss are quite suitable. "Didn''t you drive over?" Jin shaosi asked coldly. "But I want to be with you. After all, we are both busy, so don''t waste time on the road. Are you right?" Fang Xiran''s last problem was left to Lu Fan. "D......" Lu Fan subconsciously opened his mouth, but he just made a sound, and was scared back by the cold air suddenly forced by Jin shaosi. Finally, Fang Xiran naturally won''t get off. Shaosi Jin wants to kick Fang Xiran down with one kick, but this woman is not powerless. He really seems... He can''t kick down. The ending was originally that Jin shaosi planned to wait for why Ning to pick her up for dinner after work, but he could only "accompany" Fang Xiran to have hot pot. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze took the ointment and applied it to the corner of his mouth. He didn''t want to have bruises later. Even if he Yining didn''t necessarily notice or don''t know how to care. With a "drop", a text message came from the mobile phone. Li Yunze put down his cotton swab and picked up his mobile phone. It was a text message sent by Fang Xiran: brother, I helped you take care of shaosi Jin. We went to dinner together. No one bothered you and he Yining. Remember you owe me a favor. Jin Yunze: don''t be indifferent now. Fang Xiran scolded secretly and replied with clenched teeth: stingy, stingy. You deserve to be punched by my little company. I have to punch twice. It''s good to be equal! Li Yunze didn''t reply again. After throwing the mobile phone aside, wiping off the applied ointment and applying it with ice, he didn''t continue to deal with it because he couldn''t see it. "Dong Dong!" "Come in." Yanmiao pushed the door and came in, "what''s the matter with you?" "Nothing." Li Yunze packed the medicine bottle and ice bag. "This is the operation scheduled next week. There is one with high technical content. The director asked me to come and ask if you want to participate?" Because the Institute is not a necessary operation, Li Yunze has rarely participated in the past two years and will follow up at most. "It wasn''t necessary years ago. I didn''t participate." Li Yunze got up and took off his white coat. Yan Miao wondered, "why?" Chapter 1551 "I want to stay with Yining..." Li Yunze said, and the man had gone out, "I''ll go first." "Li Yunze..." Yan Miao shouted. Li Yunze was about to pull the door of the office. He stopped and looked back at yanmiao. "Come on." Yan Miao said with a smile, "Li Yunze, no matter what happened to Yining now, I believe her love for you has never stopped... So please come on! After all, Yining has worked hard for you for so long..." "I will." Li Yunze''s eyes were firm. He smiled with yanmiao and opened the door to leave. Yan Miao looked at Li Yunze''s back and looked deeper and deeper Having experienced so much with Yining, I have already gone through the crazy years at the beginning. But just because of this, the rich precipitated things will make a person expand and crush a person. Yan Miao left Li Yunze''s office and went outside I''ll always think of the rainy day and talk to her on the way. "Time is like sand. Who is infected with whose sadness? Is it true that in the end, I am the only one left in this city..." Yes, as Yining himself said! She just loved Li Yunze so much that she forgot to love herself Therefore, no matter happiness, sweetness or pain! Only one Li Yunze is Yining''s war chaos, and only one Li Yunze is Yining''s final destination. She believes! "Ah!" Yanmiao was suddenly startled by the people who came out. When he saw that it was Huo Qishen, his face was as black as the bottom of the pot. "Why, Fang Xiran came to see you. You don''t know your last name and start jumping around, do you?" Yan Miao gnashed his teeth and kicked Huo Qishen on his ass. Suddenly "Ow --" The sharp scream almost lifted the roof. "Yan Miao, are you a woman?" "I''m really bored to come to you. That''s what you did to me!" "Looking for me? Hehe!" Yan Miao sneered, "I think you can''t lie down because Fang Xiran came to see you. If you want to have a relationship, ask me if there is any special effect way to get better quickly?" "See through, don''t explain, don''t understand?" Huo Qi deeply frowned, and the whole person felt bad, "really, why do I always..." Huo Qishen looked at yanmiao''s posture of raising his feet again and hurriedly stopped. "Ha ha". After making a sound, his action was slightly weird and retreated, "I''m so good that men don''t fight women!" "Hum!" Yan Miao snorted coldly, turned and walked to the office. There were nurses watching secretly, smiling one by one, brave interns and joking with Huo Qishen. No way. In the past two years, Huo Qishen estimated that it was a bad time and was about to become a regular customer of Huakang. The most important thing is that every time I come in, I don''t meet yanmiao. It must be yanmiao who picked him up on the road "I said, Huo Dashao, in fact, do you want to consider putting the lower head and chasing our inflammation doctor instead?" A nurse said kindly, "it''s great to have a private doctor in the future!" "Are you sure it''s not domestic violence?" Huo Qishen asked solemnly. The nurse was stunned and then laughed If you don''t consider being in the ward area, you can probably burst into laughter. ¡­¡­ When Li Yunze arrived at the hospital, he Yining suddenly sent a pregnant woman who was hit by a naughty child in the emergency room into the operating room. After he sent her a text message, he waited in the car. Taking the calculation paper aside, Li Yunze calculated the sample several times while waiting. He wants to make sure that the samples will come out at the end of the year to apply for patents, so that they can all be done before the lunar new year. One by one, the family of three can come back for the new year. Yining will always be easier to get out of emotional illness. As time goes by, the sky gradually darkens. Suddenly, a gust of wind blew outside, sweeping down the remaining yellow leaves on the branches. Li Yunze raised his eyes and looked at the yellow leaves falling on the windshield. Because of wind erosion and insect moth, he could clearly see the veins of the leaves. Dead leaves fall to the ground and become nutrients, and new leaves can grow in the coming year, which is the regeneration ability of the tree Yining, you can too, can''t you?! Gently fanned his eyes, Li Yunze looked at the calculation draft in his hand, remembered all the calculation contents, put it into the small shredder in the car, and destroyed all the drafts. Look at the sky, Li Yunze got off and went to the emergency room. "Li Shao?!" When a nurse on duty saw Li Yunze, she was surprised at first, and then said with a clear smile, "doctor he will come out in about half an hour." "Is everything going well?" Li Yunze asked. The nurse on duty nodded and said half jokingly, "Dr. he is great in order to fill the vacancy of Li Shao in medicine..." paused, "definitely not boasting!" "I know." Li Yunze smiles. When he took a walk yesterday, he already knew that now if Yining can not be in an emotional illness, the only thing he can do is work. However, people can''t work 24 hours a day. After looking at the direction of the emergency operating room, Li Yunze turned and walked out. "Li Shao, are you waiting for doctor he?" The nurse on duty was surprised to see Li Yunze leaving. "I''ll be back in a minute." Li Yunze kept walking away, leaving doubts on the face of the nurse on duty. As time passed, when the door of the emergency room opened, why did Ning take off his mask and walk out, and the nurse on duty greeted him "Dr. he, Li Shao has just come." As soon as everyone heard it, they all looked at how to be peaceful. There were both envious and jealous. Why should I look around subconsciously without seeing Li Yunze. "I''m here!" The voice of a smile came softly, and the people looked at the place where the voice came from Li Yunze was standing at the entrance of the emergency room with a lot of things in his hand. The light shrouded his tall body and cast a shadow on the ground. It was obviously lonely, but it made people feel warm. Li Yunze walked forward, his sight never left from beginning to end, he Yining. "What have you done?" Why Ning asked subconsciously. Li Yunze raised his hand slightly and handed a cup of milk tea to he Yining. "It''s cold in the operating room and outside. Drink a cup of hot milk tea and go out..." "Wow..." Everyone sighed with envy. Li Yunze tilted his head and handed a large handbag to the person on the side, "there are all!" "I followed Dr. he and enjoyed the warmth I''ve never enjoyed..." someone took the milk tea bag, "Li Shao, you''re really warm!" Li Yunze didn''t care about the teasing of the people, but looked at he Yining holding the milk tea cup in both hands, leaned over slightly and asked, "Yining, are you warm?" Chapter 1552 He Yining rubbed Li Yunze''s eyes with a soft smile, his hand holding milk tea slightly, and the corners of his mouth subconsciously smiled Although, such a smile is very shallow, very shallow! Everyone''s'' ow ow ''elongated voice sighed, joking one by one "Doctor he, your face is red!" "Oh, is Dr. he warm? Anyway, I''m warm!" "Hold you in the palm of your hand," a younger nurse held milk tea and made an intoxication, "it warmed my heart... Because the fingertips are connected to the vein leading to the heart!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Li Yunze ignored the ridicule of the people, but looked at why Ning''s subconscious smile, and the corners of his mouth couldn''t help overflowing with a smile. As long as she''s still in a mood, that''s good. When he got up, Li Yunze hugged he Yining''s shoulder and looked at everyone as if they were "angry". "Well, don''t bully my family. Yining... She has a thin skin!" The people looked at each other and immediately laughed. "Yining and I left first..." after Li Yunze said hello to everyone, Li Yunze hugged he Yining and walked out. When they arrived at the door, they watched him take off his coat and put it on he Yining, as if she had said something in her ear. Then they went out together and went to the office to change clothes. "Hey, Li Shao has good ability and dotes on women with such strength..." the unmarried medical staff sighed one by one, "how can we get married in the future?" "I know that everyone''s love is different. Why do you always look at others?" Someone said in a slightly sour tone, "besides, a rich family like Li Shao may not be happy... Haven''t you heard that entering a rich family is as deep as the sea?!" "No, I hear Professor Li is very easy to get along with." "Yes, when I was in school, I chased a senior in medical school and accompanied me to Professor Li''s class... Although I''m also in the medical system, I didn''t understand Professor Li''s Chinese herbal medicine." "You can understand the broad and profound handed down by your ancestors!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± When it comes to Li Jiyuan, the topic is biased. One or two of them are jealous to see the happiness of the discussion. They pinch the milk tea in their hands, which is not the taste at once. "It''s a different life for the same person..." he glanced down sour and turned away. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze and others why rather change their clothes and go to the car as soon as they go up to the car. They close to her and fasten her seat belt. "Is there anything you want to eat?" Why Ning zhe shook his head at the corner of his mouth, "a little tired." "Then let''s go to the fast food restaurant and have a rest, huh?" Li Yunze said, "or do you want to eat something else?" He Yining had no appetite for Shangli Yunze''s sight, but he held the milk tea in his hand and subconsciously said, "I want to eat hot and sour powder..." Li Yunze smiled and gently rubbed his chin. "Good!" After starting the car, Li Yunze looked at he Yining again, then backed up and left Shuya Hospital He Yining''s emotional illness comes from him and his eldest brother. If he wants to alleviate and eliminate the illness, he must slowly guide her mood. When he wants to study it, he must come out... Eliminate Yining''s inner guilt. Why rather quietly drinking milk tea, the warm taste in the soothing air conditioner, let her warm from the outside to the inside. Look at the passing Street View under the neon outside the car. Why is Ning''s line of sight getting deeper and deeper Suddenly, why Ning frowned slightly and looked left and right at both sides of the road. "How did you come to school?" He Yining asked. Li Yunze smiled at her. "Didn''t you like to come here to eat hot and sour powder most before?" He paused. "Well, once he walked and ate with his hand in his hand and almost bumped into me." He Yining''s eyes were at a loss, and then gradually gathered together. "It should be. I almost poured the hot and sour powder directly on me!" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. Why Ning''s mind gradually had the picture at that time, although not many, but finally Li Yunze''s heavy face was very clear. The corners of the mouth gradually smiled, and the smile was still small and shallow. Li Yunze is very satisfied with why Yining has such a performance. He is a doctor and a man who loves Yining. He knows very well that he can''t eliminate her emotional illness at once. It was a potentially long process, three or five months short and long Li Yunze sighed secretly, but there was nothing on his face. He untied his seat belt and got out of the car. When the boss saw he Yining, he looked at it for a while. "Hey, you''re the one... Yes, in the medical department, three girls often eat hot and sour noodles together?" "Yes." Why Ning nodded with a smile, which is different from the smile just now under the guidance of Li Yunze. At the moment, it comes from politeness. "Does the boss remember her?" Li Yunze asked while ordering. "Of course," the boss couldn''t stop when he opened the chatterbox. "At that time, three little girls talked about a boy named Li Yunze all day... There are many girls here, and there are also boys, but they always talk about the same one every time, just the three of them..." Said, suddenly the boss looked at Li Yunze with some embarrassment, "ha ha, that... Three li, not necessarily her discussion, right!" The boss thought about why he would rather eat with a man. Don''t look back. She quickly yelled at the relationship between the two people. He Yining gently pursed his mouth and looked at Li Yunze. After taking the meal card handed over by the boss and saying "I''ll line up", he quickly turned and left. The boss is a little numb. He thinks that even if there is something, it is also the man. Why does the woman seem to be very emotional?! "First of all, it must be her." Li Yunze looked at the embarrassed boss and said with a smile, "secondly, I''m Li Yunze!" "Ah?!" As soon as the boss heard this, he was stunned, then smiled and waved his hand in front of him, "so she''s talking!" Li Yunze nodded. "I said, so she''s embarrassed..." the boss said and hurriedly took out a meal card. "I''ll treat you to this marinated meat. I wish you a long time." "Sure!" Li Yunze had no polite result meal card, "thank you, boss!" He went to find he Yining. When he came to her, he rubbed slightly and said to her, "look, the boss knows I''m the one you say, and gave us a plate of soy sauce... Alas, I''m handsome. Sometimes I can brush my face." "Shameless, obviously..." he Yining opened his mouth with instinctive reaction, but was stunned when he said half of it and looked forward to Li Yunze''s vaguely looking eyes. Li Yunze didn''t speak, just waiting. Why was Ning Leng there? When he was urged by the people behind him, he suddenly woke up, and his face suddenly became at a loss... As if he didn''t know what he had just said. Chapter 1553 Li Yunze looked at her and sighed softly. His sight crossed the urging people behind, and he was helpless. He finally mobilized Yining''s potential emotion, because the later urging was in vain He Yining was quiet all the time, occasionally chatting with Li Yunze, but basically Li Yunze was talking and she was listening. On the way back, why would you rather blow the air conditioner on the car and fall asleep. When he got to the villa, Li Yunze looked at the wind blowing outside and he Yining sleeping. After thinking about it, he gently got off the bus and went to the villa to get the blanket. He Yining woke up just after opening the door. "I fell asleep..." why should I rather blame myself. Li Yunze frowned slightly and said with a smile: "it doesn''t matter. After your high-intensity surgery, in a warm car, your nerves will automatically enter a relaxed state and fall asleep easily." Li Yunze saw he Yining get out of the car and put the blanket directly on her. "It''s cold outside. Don''t look back and catch a cold... Otherwise, you won''t be able to touch the newborn for a few days." He Yining originally wanted to refuse, because Li Yunze''s words stopped. Li Yunze smiled, gathered the blanket for why Ning, and hugged her back to the villa Yining can chase her for 6000 days and nights. Now is the time when she needs him most. He also has patience and perseverance to help her get out of the high city she built for herself! ¡­¡­ "Since you''re back on business, do you have time to follow me?" With a cold face, Jin shaosi looked at Fang Xiran who followed him back into the car. Fang Xi ran raised her eyebrows. "It''s all right. Sometimes it''s for private use..." she said with a grin, "my grandfather is also a political commissar, isn''t he!" "Don''t you depend on your family even in the army?" Jin shaosi''s voice became colder. "Yes, because I can handle it myself, but you and I have the ability. I don''t have time. I can only squeeze time." Fang Xiran said solemnly. "..." Jin shaosi''s eyebrows tightened even more. For Fang Xiran, he knew what he meant, but he pretended to be confused from beginning to end. Fang Xiran is very smart and knows why Jin shaosi can''t let go, so he has no feelings for her. But she also knows very well why Ning won''t be Jin shaosi''s, so she must watch closely. At least she can''t be taken advantage of by other women during the vacuum period To enter, it has to be her! "Well, I''ve passed the entrance guard to go home. Do you want to take me in tonight?" Fang Xiran gently fanned his eyes, "don''t worry, absolutely only sleep and don''t do anything else!" "..." Jin shaosi immediately twitched the corners of his mouth again. Lu Fan also endured a smile and looked at Fang Xiran from the rearview mirror. He wanted to say very much. Didn''t that say when the little boy lied to the little girl? "Fang Xiran, you''ve had enough!" Jin shaosi looked back coldly, "either you get off or I get off!" "I think it can be changed into either we take the bus together or we get off together..." Fang Xiran rubbed his stomach. "Seriously, I just ate a little too much. Why don''t we get off and take a walk?" "..." Jin shaosi succeeded again and was choked by Fang Xiran. Fang Xiran looked at the appearance of Jin shaosi, smiled at Lu Fan and said, "handsome boy, drive, go to the winery!" Lu Fan looks at Jin shaosi from the rearview mirror. Seeing that the boss is unable to argue with Fang Xiran, he starts the car "In fact, I know you''re worried about why you''re not in the mood to deal with me..." Fang Xiran leaned against the car seat and looked out of the window. "Shaosi, you want to see the happiness of the people you care about. I can understand, but have you ever thought that your constant presence is undermining her happiness?" Jin shaosi was silent and looked to the other side. Fang Xiran knew that Jin shaosi didn''t like to hear this, but if she wanted to make her position clear, she also needed to let him see the facts. "Seriously, the last time I saw he Yining, I thought she was different from before..." Fang Xiran looked at Jin shaosi, "but whether she and Li Yunze were good or not, fortunately or not, it was all about her and Li Yunze. You can''t intervene, just like you never walked into he Yining''s heart!" "Fang Xiran, you''ve had enough!" Jin shaosi is really angry. "Enough is enough..." Fang Xi ran glanced and hummed in his nose. "I like you. You can yell with me. Hum, I don''t like it when I look back. I see what you drag... How do you say that?! when I like you, you love to answer and ignore it. When I look back, I turn around and leave, making you regret!" "..." Jin shaosi was speechless again. Lu Fan grinned at the corners of his mouth, and the other party hoped to like it more and more. In fact, he also wants to tell boss that he and he Yining are really inappropriate. ¡­¡­ After a late autumn wind blew at night, the temperature suddenly dropped a lot. Because the research laboratory is cultivating samples, and there is nothing going on recently, Li Yunze picks up and sends him to work almost every day. He Yining asks everyone who has been speculating about the relationship between the two people to be sprinkled with dog food. Under the careful infiltration of Li Yunze, he Yining''s emotional illness has changed a little. Although I still lose my mind, it''s obviously not so frequent. I occasionally smile from my heart Recently, the most talked about in Los Angeles is a new one. Obviously, there is no media admission, but there is a uproar because of Jian Mo''s microblog. The wedding of Ye Chenyu and Chen, as well as Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue. After the wedding, because of a lawsuit, Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue became the same case. The opposing defense lawyer once again attracted the attention of many people in Los Angeles. Of course, the overwhelming coverage of these news and people''s discussion can''t be covered up. People with intentions stare at the research line of sight in the Research Institute "There''s news from Wang Yueqiang," Zheng Hao said. "The sample will come out in three days." Meng Yi stood in front of the window, looked out of the window and didn''t speak. It has been more than three years since I came to Los Angeles with Qu Weiwei In addition to the time spent before, when the result was about to come out, he suddenly became a little nervous. The most important thing is that he is impatient, although Turning slowly, Meng Yi went to the sofa and sat down. Subconsciously, he took the fruit knife and apple and began to peel. His speed is very fast, and the peelable skin is still connected and thin. Zheng Hao looked, "are you also worried that there will be problems with this research?" "It shouldn''t be. It''s just inexplicable that I''m a little flustered." Meng Yi sighed, "after all, after waiting for so many years, if the result is unsatisfactory, it''s always bad..." Meng Yi said, biting the cut apple and gradually sinking his eyes while chewing, "pay more attention to the trend in the dark. I don''t want things to come out and be stared at by a bunch of people." "Speaking of this..." Zheng Hao hesitated before saying, "how do I feel that people in Mo Palace are staring at me recently?" Chapter 1554 Meng Yi immediately frowned at Zheng Hao, "ink palace?" Zheng Hao nodded. "I haven''t found it before. This is also a recent period of time. I don''t think the people in the dark are what we have noticed before." Meng Yi''s eyebrows tightened. "If it''s from the Mo palace, it won''t be so easy to find." "This is also my strange..." Zheng Hao couldn''t figure it out, "but I noticed that more than 80% of the other party is from Mo palace in Los Angeles." Meng Yi''s eyebrows have been tightened. "If the people in the Mo Palace are watching, this matter will be a little tricky." "According to the truth, the other party should not care very much..." Zheng Hao also frowned. "When things came out, the ink palace seemed not to care. It is said that the ink palace has its own pharmacist, who is also very powerful." "In this world, no one dislikes money." Meng Yi leaned slowly on the sofa. "The most important thing is that if this research is put on the market, it will obviously become the resistance of the ink palace. Even if they don''t want it, I''m afraid they won''t want to see it." "So, I was thinking, do you want the sample to come out this time, and we''ll do it?" Zheng Hao suggested, "you think, if we wait for all to come out, Li Yunze must apply for patent protection, and we have only a time difference. If we are blocked by the ink palace, it is easy to miss." "So... We can get it before we succeed. Even if we don''t have it in the last step, we can increase the extraction degree by a high proportion." Meng Yi said, and his eyes gradually deepened. ¡­¡­ Mo palace. Star just got a shot in his ass and his muscles still hurt. But because he began to tell Shi Shaoqin that he was not afraid of pain when there were stones, star just endured without crying. Star''s small mouth has been deflated and can''t be deflated any more. He looks at Shi Shaoqin with tearful eyes. His voice is soft and waxy, and he is still choking. "Star is not afraid of pain... Not afraid..." Shi Shaoqin was distressed and relieved at the bottom of his eyes. He raised his hand and gently wiped star''s tears. In a soft voice, he said with a smile, "star is a little man. It''s really great!" "Hmm..." star answered in his nose, holding Shi Shaoqin and continuing to shed tears. Xi Cheng knows how much pain this injection will have. Star was crying in pain, but he didn''t make any noise or cry loudly It''s not easy for a child who is only two years old. I don''t know why, Xi Cheng has a feeling from this matter. What kind of patience will star have in the future?! Later, it did prove star''s patience, which not only made him pass a lot of dangers, but also made him a proud figure At that time, star controlled the fate of many people, which neither Shi Shaoqin nor Xi Cheng thought of at the moment. Shi Shaoqin left the injection room with star in his arms. The sunshine outside was just right and spread on the beach and sunflowers in Mo palace, which was particularly bright. "Qin Shao..." Carney came over and saw him coming. He quickly wiped star''s tears and twisted his eyebrows in pain, pretending not to see star''s tears. Star is now in constant "amnesia", but his bones are stubborn and tenacious. He loves to laugh. He doesn''t like others to see him cry, does he? Although he is still young, it is his inherent pride Shi Shaoqin just gave Kani a look and then took star to the sunflower field. "Stone..." star fell on Shi Shaoqin''s shoulder and said in a voice, "star plays by himself." Shi Shaoqin''s heart suddenly softened. Star is still so young, but he knows that Carney has something to do with him. It hurts to be sensible. "Can you do it alone?" Shi Shaoqin asked softly. "Hmm..." star lifted up, his eyes still red. Shi Shaoqin smiled softly and put star down. "Let Qingqing turn over the melon seeds with you and take you to catch shrimp later, huh?" "Eat roast shrimp!" Star, cheer up. "OK." Shi Shaoqin rubbed star''s head and looked at the little guy''s satisfied appearance. His long and narrow eyes were slightly deeper, showing a softer warmth than time. Star turned around and walked to the place where the melon seeds were dried. Shi Shaoqin kept watching until the little guy reached his destination. "There''s news from Los Angeles," Carney said. "Li Yunze''s research is likely to be completed in the near future. It is estimated that it will be successful around the lunar new year." Shi Shaoqin glanced at star and said softly, "don''t think about things that are not in the ink palace..." Carney grinned and subconsciously looked at star. Mo Gong doesn''t want it. After all, it''s really useful for improving the purity and yield of poison samples. I didn''t take it at the beginning, but Qin Shao''s mind was not there. Not now Carney looked at star again and sighed. Now it''s a waste of money! A star, Gu Beichen simply caught Qin Shao''s weakness and threatened him with Jian Mo, which was almost a hundred attempts. "Then send someone to protect it?" Carney asked. "The rules are broken..." Shi Shaoqin said quietly, "put on an appropriate show and compete until Li Yunze applies for international patent protection!" Carney shrugged not surprisingly and answered. Shi Shaoqin didn''t say anything more and walked to star The sun pulled his figure long, obviously as lonely as before, but at the moment, Kani saw a touch of warmth enveloping around Shi Shaoqin. In fact, the ability of Mo palace really doesn''t need Li Yunhao''s research. A star not only makes up for Qin Shao''s lonely and cold heart, but also forcibly injects a touch of sunshine into the whole Mo palace... Although abrupt, it makes people greedy. ¡­¡­ "Wow..." Zhang Xinya lay on the window and looked outside. "It''s snowing." "Really?" Someone gathered around one after another, "what a big snowflake. I feel I can make a snowman back." "Yes!" He Yining and Chu Qin happened to pass by. They looked at several nurses lying on the window and looked at each other. Chu Qin shook his head. "Wait, Li Shao, come and pick you up?" Chu Qin, look at the time. Why Ning nodded with a smile, "well, if he doesn''t have temporary surgery, he''ll come." Chu Qin looked at he Yining and smiled. Her eyes were sharp and said, "I see you''re in a better mood recently..." He Yining looked at Chu Qin somewhat puzzled, as if he didn''t understand why she said so. Chu Qin sighed deeply, "before, Li Shao was busy with the Research Institute. I think you were either reading or busy with the affairs of Cori all day. You were still thinking about why you were young and ambitious!" She smiled. "However, judging from Li Shao''s recent performance, it seems that he has a sense of crisis." Why Ning zhe smiled, "he won''t have..." "No, I have!" At the right time, Li Yunze stood in front and answered with a smile. Chapter 1555 Chu Qin looked at Li Yunze, nodded to him with a smile, looked at he Yining and said, "there''s nothing to do now. Let''s get off work!" "Thank you, director." Why did Ning smile and watch Chu Qin return to the office before walking to Li Yunze. "Why are you here so early today?" Why is there a faint smile in your eyes. After Li Yunze''s efforts for more than a month, he Yining now can gradually release his emotions and slowly find some of Li Yunze''s original palpitations. However, such palpitations are still frozen in the corner of the bottom of my heart, because the guilt and remorse for Li Yunhao cannot be completely released. Li Yunze is not in a hurry. Now everything is going well. Just wait for the research to come out. He will tell Yining that whether it is the eldest brother of heaven or him, he will choose to forgive! If the past page is turned over, they will have a long, long, new chapter to continue to write hand in hand "I don''t think the weather is very good. The hot pot restaurant you like to eat will be full, so come in advance and we''ll take a seat in advance." Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "Are there any places you can''t make an appointment with?" Why would you rather smile than believe it at all. Li Yunze shrugged, "who knows, there may be mistakes!" He raised his eyebrows. "Go change your clothes. We don''t drive today. We''ll take the subway..." "Huh?" He Yining was a little surprised. Li Yunze smiled and didn''t answer. He Yining didn''t continue to ask. He turned to the office, took off his white coat and put on his down jacket. Now Li Yunze appears too frequently in Shuya, so that everyone has enough dog food to eat, and even the idea of joking is gone! No one wants to die young because of eating dog food! Li Yunze took he Yining''s hand and walked to the subway station. He looked at ordinary couples or young couples, lined up to buy tickets and swiped his card into the station. "Can I have a coke today?" He Yining suddenly asked in a low voice. He looked around at the right time and smiled at the corners of his mouth. She feels like a child now and has to apply! Li Yunze looked sideways at he Yining, and his eyes gradually deepened During this time, although Yining will also put forward some opinions, he will never mention them. For example, he may have opposed them in the past. But today, she told him that she wanted to drink coke. Li Yunze''s nose is a little sour. He knows his company, which makes Yining''s heart slightly open again Although such progress is not fast, he is very satisfied. "No?" Why would you rather see Li Yunze looking at her without talking, a little lost, "forget it..." "Good!" Li Yunze clenched his hand, "but only one can." Why did Ning fan her eyelashes and hear Li Yunze agree? Suddenly, in the contrast of loss, she suddenly became happy, and even her smile was much larger than usual "Stop ahead..." At the right time, the sound of reporting the station came from the lift car, and Li Yunze took he Yining''s hand to the door. When they got out of the subway station, the ground outside was covered with a thin layer of snow. Snowflakes flying all over the sky, just like elves, fall freely, making the neon of the whole city a fairy tale. Why rather spread out the other hand, there is snow, flowers fall in the palm and melt. "Well... It''s so cold!" Why Ning curled up his hand and smiled at Li Yunze. Li Yunze rubbed her head, "just like a child." Why Ning chuckled and followed Li Yunze to the hot pot restaurant. They didn''t go to the box, so they sat down near the window, eating hot hot pot and looking at the snow outside "Hissing!" Li Yunze made two sounds. When he Yining looked over, he slightly picked his chin. He Yining looked at the window and saw that the heat shrouded the fog on the glass. Li Yunze didn''t know when to draw a heart on it. He Yining looked at Li Yunze, whose face was slightly ruddy under the heat of the hot pot, "naive!" "Tut Tut, I will repay you!" Li Yunze was dissatisfied. He Yining shook his body slightly and drank a cold coke, feeling particularly satisfied. These emotions are instinctive reactions, and even she hasn''t thought about it Li Yunze watched he Yining immobile. Seeing that her state was getting better and better, he couldn''t help laughing at the corners of his mouth. That kind of smile instantly reached the fundus of the eye and filled all nerves. "I haven''t made a snowman with one for a long time..." why would I rather rinse the dishes and suddenly say. "When you come back one by one, you will be around us. There will be many opportunities in the future..." Li Yunze answered. He Yining suddenly stopped and looked at Li Yunze through the heat. Li Yunze didn''t give him the chance to think more, "I''ll have some of your coke?" "No!" He Yining immediately put down his chopsticks and protected the coke. "Just give me a can. If you want to drink mine, you can have it again!" Li Yunze smiled, "then I''ll drink a little, and the rest belongs to you?" "I don''t mind..." he Yining gently fanned his eyes, "otherwise, you want another can!" "Think beautifully, you!" "..." why is ningdun a little angry, "stingy." Two people chatted innocently, but the most distracted words, eating hot pot, the atmosphere was good as if nothing bad had happened. Not far away, several people from the media platform were also eating hot pot and recorded Li Yunze and he Yining on their mobile phones. "In the early morning of the evening, something was written in the article..." the person who took the picture with his mobile phone smiled and said, "well, the title is... Love by the hot pot is the most distracted!" "Yes, rich people can be so grounded. I feel that Li Yunze really loves why he Ning." "The four of them, except the boss is very mysterious, now Gu Beichen and Jian Mo are high-profile happy, Li Yunze and he Yining are low-key show their love..." someone raised their eyebrows. "There is also an old four Lin to the south, tut Tut, there are fewer and fewer high-quality men with diamonds." ¡°¡­¡­¡± After eating, he yunning chatted with the media. The snow outside has covered the ground with a thick layer, and the snowflakes are still flying, as if to cover the whole world with pure white. "Shall we take a walk?" He Yining asked. "That''s the plan..." Li Yunze smiled. "Otherwise, why don''t you drive?" Why Ning turned his head to Li Yunze and listened to him continue: "you like the sound of footsteps stepping on the snow. You hope that one day, I can hold your hand and leave a string of footprints on the snow..." He Yining looked up at Li Yunze, and gradually, he was absorbed by his deep eyes, and a low and soft voice came gently, "Yining, I''m sorry... This day has made you wait for two more winters!" Chapter 1556 Why did Ning zhe look at Li Yunze from the corner of her mouth? He was occasionally covered by snowflakes, but his eyes were more hazy and firm. Gradually, she forgot to think However, at this moment, although she forgot to think, she was not empty, but her heart was warm. It''s like being surrounded by a circle of stoves in the snowy night around the heart The sound of stepping on the snow is very light because of the noise of the car''s engine. Can fall on the heart of the weight, but very heavy, very heavy. "There''s a park ahead. The snow hasn''t been trampled. Where are we going, huh?" "Yes!" He Yining nodded with a smile in his eyes. Li Yunze doted on he Yining''s forehead, and then took her hand and turned around. Why Ning''s hand was wrapped by Li Yunze''s big palm. It was not cold at all. They just stepped on the thick snow and walked forward all the way Ye Chenyu told Chen Yu that he liked walking with her in the snow. When Chen Chen asked why, he replied: because when we walk, we all turn white Although it is a natural phenomenon, isn''t it a beautiful dream? Two people who love each other, what can be more expected than falling in love to white head... And impulsive for love and crazy for love?! "If you go wrong, you will be punished!" Li Yunze said with an eyebrow. He Yining seriously jumped the steps that Li Yunze had stepped on. After a few jumps, he said angrily, "Li Yunze, your steps are too big!" Li Yunze stopped and looked back. He didn''t realize what he said. He just seriously began to step on the snow pit Li Yunze stepped on In the eye socket, something stung, a little wet and hot. For a long time, she had not called his name like this, with charming and angry. "Then I''ll go smaller." Li Yunze said with a smile. "Yes!" He Yining just lifted his eyes and began to step on them. Face, because the cold wind blows a little red. But he Yining didn''t take it into account at the moment. He just happily stepped on the footsteps of Li Yunze, just like when he was a child. He kept chasing, chasing... He lost his heart! Suddenly He Yining looked at the dense footprints in front of him, basically at most one foot apart, and slightly opened his mouth. Raised his eyes and watched Li Yunze stamp his small steps madly there. Why Ning''s mouth was a little bigger Li Yunze has long legs and takes big steps every time. At this moment, he suddenly has to stamp such a small step. His posture is very funny, just like walking a tall but thin bear on the snow. "Ha ha ha..." He Yining suddenly laughed. Even if she laughed like this, she still didn''t understand the origin of her emotions. Li Yunze stopped and looked back slightly panting. He saw why he would rather smile than support. The light in his eyes gradually deepened. He didn''t know where he Yining''s smile was touched, but at this moment, he almost ran over regardless and wanted to hold her. If he didn''t want to give her a complete memory of stepping on the steps, he would really run back! "What are you laughing at?" Li Yunze asked angrily. "Why do you step on such a small step? It''s so small that you''ll laugh at you one by one..." he Yining couldn''t stop laughing, "the most important thing is that your posture was so ugly that it was so ugly! Ha ha..." "You despised me for being big, so I made it smaller, and now you despised me for being small..." Li Yunze forked his waist. "Well, why are you so peaceful? You owe a beating, don''t you?!" As he spoke, he tried to turn back. "Hey, hey, don''t move!" Why should I stop it in a hurry, "it''s small. I haven''t stepped on it yet. Which way should I go when you come back?" Li Yunze used to frighten he Yining. Naturally, he didn''t move. Seeing that she was afraid of her moving, he hurried to step on her footprints and looked deeply. Yining, you should have been so simple. You simply want to be with me However, we can''t help making things very complicated. Sorry, on the road of love, I''m just a novice. I don''t know how to balance and ignore your feelings. "Li Yunze, I''m almost finished..." he Yining stepped on it happily and raised his eyes to see Li Yunze who hasn''t moved yet. Li Yunze smiled, "you can''t keep up with me again. I''m waiting for you." "Who says I can''t keep up, I can keep up!" Why should I rather say it. "Then I''ll start..." "Good!" He was not convinced to lose. Li Yunze took back his sight and began to step on his footprints with a smile in his mouth. Occasionally, he would look back and see why he Yining followed him. The smile in the corner of his mouth could not help but go deep Yining, I''ll stop and you''ll follow... Then we''ll be white headed together. ¡­¡­ "Alas..." "Alas!" "Alas..." "..." Jin shaosi looked at Fang Xiran, who was lying on the glass and watching the snow falling outside. His face sank. "Ace, I deliberately ''alas'' to listen to you!" Tan Zhonglang wiped his cup. "It''s so late. Are you two wasting so much?" "Otherwise?" Jin shaosi''s face was heavy and regretted that he didn''t open a door behind the winery at the beginning. "She said she was on vacation this time. I think she came to torture people." Tan Zhonglang smiled and shook his head. "Shaosi, the snow outside is so beautiful. Shall we go out for a walk?" Fang Xiran looked back, "when it snowed before, I was basically training. At that time, I didn''t seem to be in the mood to play. I thought that although I was a woman, I didn''t want to lose!" With that, Fang Xiran sat down in a chair on one side, as if he thought of something and suddenly touched his feelings. "Because of my grandfather and father''s identity, I have to work harder than others since I went to military school. I''m afraid if I don''t work hard enough, I will be said to be because of the relationship at home." Fang Xiran sighed softly and looked away at the snow floating outside. "Later, he went down the company and became a cadre. When the recruits saw that you were a woman, they naturally bullied you..." Jin shaosi tightened his eyebrows a little. "At that time, they ran five kilometers, and I ran ten kilometers. They did one hundred push ups in the snow, and I did two hundred..." Fang Xiran suddenly smiled, looked sideways at Jin shaosi and said, "I''ll tell you, my hands are full of frostbite. It''s so terrible for a while that I can''t see it anymore." "..." Jin shaosi felt a touch of unknown heartache at the bottom of his eyes. He could imagine that feeling. "So ah, I was particularly afraid of snow before, because when it snowed, I was afraid of frostbite!" Fang Xiran shrugged, "however, later it was estimated that my hands were solid, so I couldn''t afford it. However, I also missed the age when I would appreciate the snow." Jin shaosi sighed quietly. Yu Guang saw Tan Zhonglang smiling at the corners of his mouth. "Let''s go. I''ll walk around with you..." Chapter 1557 Jin shaosi dropped his words, lowered his high stool, took back his helpless eyes on Fang Xiran, and went out. As soon as Fang Xiran heard this, he immediately stood up, followed up, took Jin shaosi''s arm and said with a smile: "I knew that if I said that, you would not stand me and go out with me... Ha ha!" Jin shaosi glanced at Fang Xinran and didn''t bother to talk to her. Yes, he knows that Fang Xiran said that on purpose. In fact, in the army, as long as you want to prove your ability, how many don''t come out of hardship? It''s a place that doesn''t distinguish between men and women, because the enemy''s bullets won''t ignore you because you''re a woman. Even on the battlefield, women are more disadvantaged than men because of their physical structure. Only by making yourself stronger can you protect yourself well. However, when seeing Fang Xiran happily making snowmen, Jin shaosi felt... In fact, he hasn''t been so relaxed for a long time. "Shaosi, help me push the snow with that..." "Shaosi, you go to the kitchen and find me a carrot!" "Shao Si, Shao Si, yes, just the straw hat, take it..." "Shaosi, find another broom... And a scarf..." "Ha ha, shaosi, you see, the snowman I made is not bad!" Jin shaosi looked at the fat snowman in front of him, looked at his hands behind his back, slightly tilted his head, picked his chin and smiled at Fang Xiran. Suddenly, he was a little distracted It''s like a magic sound penetrating the auditory nerve. Shaosi, shaosi Jin shaosi frowned deeply and felt that he must have been tortured crazy by Fang Xiran. "Ah..." "Bang!" "Ha ha ha ha..." When Jin shaosi was absent-minded, Fang Xiran suddenly shouted. After that, a snowball fell and hit his heart. Then Fang Xiran laughed happily. Mr. Jin twisted his eyebrows and looked up "Comrade Jin shaosi, you have been hit in the heart by me. From now on, you should remember that you are my man..." Fang Xiran said with an eyebrow. In that way, under the cover of snow and lights, it is not like the ability of soldiers, but the delicacy of daughters. "Fang Xiran is quite suitable for ASI." Tan Zhonglang looked at the two people standing outside the window and said to Lu fan who came out with a cup of hot tea. "Instead of waiting for nothing, it''s better to start over." Lu Fan took a sip of hot tea. "Boss has been carrying a lot since he returned to Jin''s house. It''s suitable for a simple person." "Do you think Fang Xiran is simple?" Tan Zhonglang glanced at Lu Fan and disagreed. Lu Fan shook his head. "She''s not simple. People from such families can''t be simple." "Do you think ace is suitable for simple?" Tan Zhonglang rolled his eyes. "Yes!" Lu Fan couldn''t understand Tan Zhonglang''s face and said, "whether Fang Xiran is simple or not, as long as it is simple to the boss, it''s good!" A woman will become two extremes only when she really loves a man. One is extremely complex and resourceful, the other is extremely simple and has only a single purpose. Obviously, he Yining is like this to Li Yunze, and Fang Xiran is like this to Jin shaosi! ¡­¡­ A snow turned the whole city of Los Angeles into a white world. The snowplow kept working on the road and cleaned up the snow on the road for two consecutive days. People make complaints about snowy journey while they are not able to resist the beauty of snow. It seems that when people live, they are always tangled and spend sometimes boring days. "A little nervous." The associate professor of the research institute rubbed his eyebrows. "The sample will be out in more than an hour. If it is successful, it seems that the research will be basically done years ago and years later." "Now I''m afraid I want to be discouraged..." another professor sighed softly. "If there is any mistake, the preliminary work will be done in vain, and it will take at least three or five months to cultivate samples." "I don''t even say discouraged words, but also say?" Someone rolled his eyes dissatisfied. "Let''s be calm," Li Yunze''s slender fingers tapped gently on the table, and his voice was always plain with self-confidence. "No research can achieve absolute success. We just need to learn from experience and strive for early success after failure." "What Li Shao said is reasonable," the associate professor looked at the crowd. "It''s right for everyone to have expectations to witness the launch of this new research, but don''t lose your confidence with expectations." As the associate professor joked, everyone''s nervous mood eased slightly. The members of the research team who haven''t spoken all the time look at each other and can''t be light. After all, this is everyone''s "of course, the picture is Li Shao and Dr. he!" "Last night, the official account was also published in an article entitled" happiness is my footsteps. "The picture is a back figure. But, looking at the figure and clothes, it is obvious that he is also a doctor. "Yes, although the article analyzes the concept of love, I don''t know why. Seeing those two pictures, I yearn for the love between Li Shao and Dr. he!" "Yes, I really feel happy..." "Seriously, I''ve never seen Dr. he smile so happily since I came to practice last year?" A little nurse who just became a regular said, "the most important thing is that at first glance, she is a little woman full of happiness." "Nonsense, when Dr. he faces us and patients, it''s polite. Can he face Li Shao the same?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The nurses who had nothing to do in the nurse station gathered together and chatted daily. Meanwhile, Monday also looked at the midnight article released by the official account. However, he didn''t read the article, just looked at the matching picture, and gradually deepened his sight Chapter 1558 Meng Yi looked at a picture of eating hot pot and stepping on footprints in the snow. He looked back and forth several times. Finally, there was a shallow smile in the corner of his mouth. That kind of smile is colder than the cold air outside. Meng Yi casually left his mobile phone aside, got up and went to the window. The snow outside has not yet begun to melt. The sun is always blocked by thick clouds. After the light penetrates, there is no heat to melt the snow. Li Yunze... Must love he Yining very much, right? Otherwise, the big brother''s tragic death is in front of him. After more than two years, he can still be with why Ning Meng Yi''s mouth was filled with a sneer, and a sneer crossed his eyes. Suddenly, the whole room was filled with a strange smell. ¡­¡­ Knowing why and Li Yunze, and seeing the late official account of the public, one by one is talking about it all the time. Especially those who are comfortable and elegant, although they have been supported by Li Yunze and why they would rather sprinkle dog food recently, they can''t help but look at beautiful things at a low level and always can''t help looking more. He Yining intercepted the two pictures and saved them to his mobile phone. Think about it and send a circle of friends. Just sent two pictures without any text. Some people''s visual permissions are also set. Although she doesn''t know how she just wants to send these two pictures, maybe she thinks it can be kept as a thought?! After all, Li Yunze ate hot pot with her and walked in the snow with his footprints, which were all her previous dreams. Suddenly When the mobile phone rings, the caller ID covers the picture of the circle of friends. Why should I rather see it was Li Yunze? Subconsciously, the corners of my mouth smiled and picked it up, "huh?" "I''m afraid I can''t pick you up at the Institute in the evening..." Li Yunze looked outside. "You''ve been occupied by me recently, and you don''t have time to get together with yanmiao. Why don''t you ask yanmiao to accompany you today?" "I can do it alone." Why would you rather wring your eyebrows slightly. Li Yunze smiled, "of course I know you can do it alone. You''re not a child..." He Yining''s originally slightly tense mood relaxed again because of Li Yunze''s words. Li Yunze''s eyes were deep. "It''s just that yanmiao and I complained when we were in Huakang at that time. In addition, we studied everything and thought that you hadn''t been together for a long time." "Well, I''ll wait for you later." He Yining was guided by Li Yunze and immediately dispelled his doubts. Li Yunze knew very well that although Yining had developed well now, her heart was sensitive and it was easy to block herself again. If so, it will be more difficult for her emotional illness. Of course, there is another aspect. During this time, Jin shaosi is here. Although Fang Xiran comes back from vacation, what if he hears that he didn''t accompany Yining today and Jin shaosi throws Fang Xiran away to find Yining? Although Jin shaosi will not "harm" Yining, it does not mean that he has any evil thoughts in his heart. He must take precautions now! After chatting with he Yining for two more words, Li Yunze hung up the phone. Just about to turn around, Yu Guang glanced at one side vaguely, and there was a shadow sliding quickly. If he hadn''t been careful, I''m afraid he wouldn''t have found it. Li Yunze sneered at the bottom of his eyes. He called here and wondered if someone would follow Sure enough! Now the research on the villa is also at a critical time. Naturally, he should be careful and careful. How can he say anything casually for others to hear? The tacit understanding between enim and him was from childhood to great seal to the bone. In terms of research, they no longer need verbal communication. They know what to do, when and how to do it. ¡­¡­ Why would you rather go to Huakang to find yanmiao after work. Just arrived at neurosurgery, I heard the sound of playing in detail Why should I rather look around my neck and see the people around the nurse station, mixed with the voice of yanmiao, as if there was a man''s voice of helplessness to beg for mercy. "Eh, doctor he is coming..." the nurse saw it with sharp eyes. Before seeing he Yining, everyone would laugh and shout ''Mrs. Li Shao'', but in the end, because her relationship with Li Yunze was a little embarrassed, she seldom came over. Everyone was "taught a lesson" by yanmiao. Thinking that they were all young people, it was OK to shout and joke like that. When they shouted more, they felt a sense of distance, so they simply shouted "Dr. he". "Lying in the trough, why should I rather? Thank you for coming..." Huo Qi deeply rubbed his hot ears and said angrily, "drag yanmiao away!" "Huo Qishen, who do you say is crazy?" Yanmiao immediately got angry again. "How long did you say you were discharged from the hospital? Ah? Here you go again... And ah, I''m in neurosurgery, not an outpatient department. Don''t run here!" "There''s still a queue over there!" Huo Qi deep eyes turned over, some make complaints about Tucao, "I think you are the God outside for a long time, a little nervous." ''poof Pooh'', why would you rather laugh, "according to what you say, you come to God to find the inflammation of any disease. It is estimated that you also have a neuropathy!" "Hahaha..." Suddenly, the nurses and yanmiao around laughed. Huo Qishen ate the fly like a lump in his throat. The whole facial expression twitched and looked at he Yining. "He Yining, I don''t think I know you!" Huo Qishen looked at he Yining and said seriously, "are you still the quiet he Yining who doesn''t say anything?" "Ow..." Huo Qishen''s words just fell. Suddenly his ears were unscrewed by yanmiao again, and he cried out in pain. "Yan Miao, you crazy woman!" Yan Miao glared at him fiercely and looked at he Yining with some uneasiness Sure enough, he Yining looked a little numb after Huo Qishen''s question, and the whole fundus of his eyes was at a loss. Paralysis! Yanmiao scolded secretly and glared at Huo Qishen fiercely. He ignored him and turned out of the nurse station. As if nothing had happened, he Yining left. "I''ll change my clothes and then we''ll have dinner." He Yining nodded slightly at the corner of his mouth. "What''s the matter?" Huo Qishen felt something. He looked at the left and right nurses with a confused face and forgot that one ear was injured and the other ear was twisted by yanmiao. The nurses looked at each other one by one, and shook their heads one after another. Huo Qishen usually plays hard, but it doesn''t mean he''s a real dandy. He just sealed his nature for some reason Just now, after he said that, it was obvious that why Ning''s mood changed, and yanmiao became nervous. Thinking, Huo Qishen got up and chased after him. There was a teasing voice behind him, but he didn''t pay attention to it. Chapter 1559 When yanmiao changed his clothes and he Yining came out, he saw Huo Qishen licking his face and staring at him again. "Well, are you going to dinner?" Huo Qishen broke the embarrassment and asked brazenly, "I''m alone. Can you add me?" "No!" "Oh!" Yan Miao and he Yining spoke at the same time. Yan Miao glanced at why Yining, then snorted coldly, "don''t disturb my aunt. I''ll eat and affect my appetite!" "Yanmiao, you can''t say that..." Huo Qishen followed step by step. "I think I''m not bad. Although I can''t say I''m handsome, at least it''s very pleasing to the eye? It''s good to have masculinity and boyfriend strength... The most important thing is to bring an activity Wallet!" Yan Miao turned her eyes. "I thank you..." just when Huo Qishen was about to laugh, she said with a smile. "Unfortunately, I''m not rare!" "..." Huo Qishen stopped, his mouth kept moving, his fingers kept pointing, and finally gritted his teeth, "I can''t bear it!" He Yining looked back at Huo Qi and took back his sight, "I''m fine... Let him together!" Yanmiao stopped and looked at he Yining. There was an undisguised worry in the fundus of his eyes. "I''m really fine, and you want to get along with him, don''t you?" Why Ning said with a smile, "Yan Yan, it''s good for the three of us to be happy!" "Will everyone be happy?" Yan Miao asked with some meaning. Why did you stop and nod with a smile She doesn''t know whether she will be happy or not. Maybe she will leave Li Yunze soon. However, she seems quite happy recently Seeing that he Yining was a little distracted again, yanmiao dared not let her continue to think. For fear that Li Yunze''s efforts during this period would be in vain, he quickly glanced and said, "what''s more, what do I want to get along with him?" He Yining replied, "if you don''t like him, can you let him pester you with everything? You''ve been beaten away with a cold face for a long time!" Yan Miao''s face was a little red, but in a flash, he felt it didn''t matter. She likes Huo Qishen very much, although she really doesn''t understand why she likes him! No self-motivated, like dandies all day, spending money at home, drinking and drinking without determination But love is like this. If everything comes as you expected without any accident, maybe it''s not love?! Yanmiao glanced at Huo Qishen, raised his hand and hooked his finger. "Since you want to spend money so much, I''ll give you a face!" "Thank Lord longen!" Huo Qishen picked his eyebrows and said that the man had followed him. The nurses continued to see off three people in the class. The night is low, and the winter night always gives people a sense of contrast inside and outside the house. He Yining and yanmiao chose a string of incense, and Huo Qishen became an errand runner. He specially took a string for two people. It was fun "I''ll go to the bathroom." Why would you rather get up. "I''ll accompany you!" He Ning shook his head. "I''ll just go by myself," she paused, and a cunning flash flashed through her eyes. "You can ask me for another can of iced coke." Yan Miao smiled and compared the ''OK'' gesture. Looking at why he Ning left, Huo Qishen hurriedly asked, "Hey, what was wrong with me in the hospital at that time?" Yan Miao tilted his eyes to Huo Qishen and looked at he Yining. After thinking, he was afraid of what Huo Qishen said wrong again, so he probably said he Yining''s emotional disease. "You mean..." "Shut up! Do you understand?" Huo Qishen originally wanted to ask something, but he swallowed it back because of yanmiao''s words. At the right time, someone took the dish to choose vegetables and passed near yanmiao''s table. Although he didn''t hear much, he still caught the end. Why rather get emotional disease! The man scratched a sneer at the corner of his mouth and went to his table without stopping, as if there was nothing different. The man sat down and whispered with the woman opposite. The woman nodded clearly and got up to go to the bathroom She waited outside, holding her cell phone and pretending to answer the phone. Yu Guang watched people passing by. Just as he Yining came out of the bathroom, the woman said in a loud voice: "the past of Yunhao is the past. Why do you always think... Yes, I''m sorry for Yunhao. Are you satisfied?" He Yining stopped abruptly and looked at the woman. His face became pale She clenched her hand slightly, her lips clenched tightly, and the fundus of her eyes kept turning and surging. Someone was in a hurry to enter the bathroom. She accidentally met he Yining and her body tilted. "Standing here in the way, sick!" Make complaints about the Tucao, the eyes of the eyes, why, rather hurried into the restroom. The woman tilted her head and pretended to look at him unintentionally. Seeing that she looked at herself, she also stared and leaned aside. After arguing with the other party for a few words, she "hung up" the phone. Why rather the whole person fell into an unreasonable thinking Brother Yunhao! She''s sorry for brother Yunhao! She''s sick Why should Ning look at the front and walk out mechanically. She forgot that she came with yanmiao, and even forgot that she was only wearing a sweater and no coat, but instinctively walked outside the store The eyelashes fluttered gently. Why Ning''s mind kept crossing the woman who had just called, and what she said to the woman who met her was like two hands, constantly tearing her nerves. "Hey, he Yining..." Huo Qishen got up to get some more dishes. Suddenly he saw he Yining push open the door of the store and go out. "Ah?" Yanmiao is still a little confused. Huo Qishen said hurriedly, "why Yining went out!" Yan Miao quickly got up and chased out. Huo Qishen didn''t dare to delay. He hurriedly took out a few large bills and put them on the table. He took several people''s clothes and bags and chased them out. "Yining..." yanmiao caught up with he Yining and looked at her with a worried face. He Yining looked at yanmiao with some numbness, and there was no focus at all. Yan Miao looked at such he Yining, and his face was a little bad. He wanted to ask what was the matter, and was afraid that what happened to her when she went to the bathroom would affect her mood even more. Huo Qishen chased her out, handed her clothes to yanmiao, and hurriedly put on he Yining''s cotton padded jacket for her. Yanmiao didn''t care about herself. She put it on after she put it on, "Huo Qishen, you drive." "Yes!" Huo Qishen just answered and wanted to turn around and drive, but he Yining had mechanically moved forward "Yining!" Ning Yimiao asked in a complicated voice, "is there something wrong with me?" Chapter 1560 Yanmiao was stunned by why Yining''s sudden question, and subconsciously replied, "you''re not sick!" He Yining looked at yanmiao and kept looking at him without talking. Yanmiao was a little flustered when she saw it. She secretly thought that Huo Qishen was usually very fast. Why hasn''t the car come yet "Yining, don''t think about it. Why are you sick?" Yan Miao grabbed he Yining''s arm. "It''s too cold outside. When Huo Qishen drives over, let''s go home first, huh?" "Yan Yan, you lied to me..." He Yining grabbed yanmiao by her arm and took a step back. His eyes were somewhat lax and had no focus, as if he had lost his soul. Yan Miao was afraid of he Yining when she saw this. She was angry and clenched her teeth secretly. She blamed herself that she should have accompanied him to the bathroom just now. Is someone saying Yining is ill?! Yanmiao doesn''t know. Before he can figure it out, he sees why he Ning turns around and wants to leave "Yining!" Yan Miao hurried to keep up and grabbed he Yining. "I want to be quiet..." why Ning glanced at yanmiao? His eyes were as muddy as if they had been disturbed by the mud pool. Yanmiao subconsciously released his hand, as if he had grasped a piece of ice, instinctively. He Yining takes back his sight and continues to walk step by step. If someone meets her, he will leave a sentence "sick"! "I''m sick?" Why rather look at the man and say, "no, I''m not ill..." However, the man''s eyes are more strange. It''s obvious that: are you sick? Yanmiao came forward and scolded the man, and then grabbed he Yining. "Yining, shall we get on the bus first? What do you have to say later?" He Yining didn''t say anything. He once again rolled off yanmiao''s hand and continued to walk forward. Huo Qishen looked at the road, leaned over and followed slowly, "what''s the situation?" Yan Miao shook his head and looked worried. Huo Qi could not make complaints about the inflammation. He said, "women are women. When they encounter problems, they only know how anxious they are." Then he took out his mobile phone and suddenly found that there was no Li Yunze''s number. Huo Qishen wanted to ask yanmiao, but he was afraid that when he mentioned Li Yunze, he would be angry about why Yining was wrong. He endured angrily and called huolianchen, the boss of the Huo family. "People who haven''t called for hundreds of years, since they still know to call me?" As soon as the phone was connected, Huo Lianchen''s sneering voice came. Huo Qi deeply bared his teeth, endured it, and said in a strange voice: "you send Li Yunze''s phone to me, I want it now!" "Why, you''ve gone too far. You need to use Li Yunze?" "Yes, I''ll be dead on the street later!" Huo Qishen''s face was a little heavy. He hung up directly after his words. Huo Qishen drove with he Yining and yanmiao all the time. Because of the speed, the whistle sounded on the road for a while. He ignored it. Anyway, he was used to playing. It''s no wonder that such things happen. A "drop" across, a short breath arrived. Huo Qishen rowed away. Huo Lianchen gave Li Yunze''s number and added a warning: I''ll see when you play?! Huoqi snorted coldly, ignored it, pressed the number and dialed out ¡­¡­ Li Yunze stared at everyone dealing with the sample waste. His mobile phone rang and took it out. Seeing that it was a strange number, he frowned slightly. Originally I didn''t want to answer, but just when I was about to hang up, there was an inexplicable unease, and I still picked it up "Li Yunze!" "I''m Huo Qishen," Huo Qishen said in a bad voice. "He Yining and yanmiao have dinner. Something''s wrong. We''re here now..." he looked at the road sign, looked at he Yining, continued to move forward, and twisted the center of his eyebrows. "Forget it, I''ll turn on my mobile phone to locate. You can locate it!" Li Yunze''s heart tightened suddenly when he Yining heard that something had happened, "OK!" Huo Qishen hung up the phone, turned on the mobile phone location and directly received the signal to Li Yunze. Li Yunze hurriedly explained to the associate professor. He didn''t even care about others. He turned and left in a hurry. People in the research room looked at Li Yunze and wondered what had happened. "Well, let''s continue..." Associate Professor Li Yunze reminded everyone when he left the research room. People took back their thoughts and continued to do what they were doing. However, Wang Yueqiang took back his eyes and wondered what had happened? ¡­¡­ In chuanchuanxiang store, the man who heard yanmiao talking before listened to the woman who pretended to be on the phone and said why Yining, his mouth smiled. "Sell this news to Zheng Hao. I''ll take you to buy clothes and bags!" The man raised his eyebrows and wondered how much he would charge back. The woman was naturally happy. She said while eating and asked, "but who is this Yunhao?" "Don''t ask if you shouldn''t know. With this Kung Fu, you''d better think about what clothes and bags to buy!" The man put a can of drink in front of the woman. "I want to buy three bags this time!" "Shit, you buy so many bags for dinner?" "I don''t care. I want three..." "OK, for your cleverness, I will reward you three... Ow!" The man was stamped by the woman''s high-heeled shoes and roared in pain. Looking at the woman''s proud appearance, he was angry and angry, but there was no way. "Husband..." when the woman saw that the man was a little angry, she immediately shouted coyly and changed the topic. "Let''s check out and see how much we can get?" "Yes." The man replied with a dull voice, and his heart was very anxious. He called the waiter to come and check out and left with the woman. They sat in the car and didn''t even want to wait. After looking around, they dialed Zheng Hao "What''s up?" The man grinned and said with a dogleg smile, "brother Hao, I happened to meet you today about your previous release." "Oh?" Zheng Hao raised his eyebrows. "Tell me, what''s the situation?" "Brother Hao..." the man hesitated. Zheng Hao hummed coldly, "come on, how much do you want?" "Ten... No, two hundred thousand!" The man swallowed. Zheng Hao narrowed his eyes slightly and his voice was calm. "See if the news is worth it." There are rules on the road. Men are not afraid that Zheng Hao will cheat after saying it. "Just now I was having dinner with my woman, and I happened to meet he Yining also having dinner..." the man said about the situation before he said, "he Yining has any emotional disease. Although I don''t know what it is, it usually looks normal. Once I heard that name, someone said she was ill, and she seems to be wrong." "Oh?" Zheng Hao slightly raised his eyebrows, looked at Meng Yi and asked, "how many people did you tell about this?" "Don''t you tell brother Hao first?" "I''ll give you 500000!" Zheng Hao said, "this news can only be known to me. I don''t want to hear it from others... Understand?" Chapter 1561 As soon as the man heard that he could get 500000 yuan, he quickly answered happily, "don''t worry, I''ll only tell brother Hao about it." "Yes." Zheng Hao answered, hung up the phone and said to Meng Yi, "it seems that Li Yunze''s abnormality during this period is related to he Yining''s disease!" Meng Yi didn''t answer. He just leaned slowly on the sofa and looked down on the silent TV in front of him. After a long time, he slowly opened his mouth: "Li Yunze knew that Li Yunhao was angry because he Yining." "My brother died because of the person I love. No one can put it down!" Zheng Hao sat down. "So, when you heard the discussion between Shuya and the two nurses in the hot pot shop, in fact, why Ning estimated that he was already ill..." Meng Yi flashed a sneer at the corners of his mouth, with a strange smell in the bottom of his eyes. "This may be our last mace." Zheng Hao is a little excited. Meng Yi nodded and the smile on the corner of his mouth deepened. Li Yunze can put down Li Yunhao''s death, which shows that it''s true. Why should love be peaceful. I just don''t know why Li Yunze''s love can be achieved by Yining Meng Yi''s vision is getting deeper and deeper. It''s like a pool of stagnant water without fluctuation. Naturally... People can''t see what he''s thinking?! ¡­¡­ Li Yunze soon found them according to Huo Qishen''s positioning. When yanmiao saw Li Yunze coming, he was stunned at first, and then it was the same as seeing the Savior. Li Yunze looked at why he would rather sit on the sidewalk, because it was a small road, there were not many cars and pedestrians, so it was relatively quiet. "I don''t know what''s going on..." yanmiao said with remorse and sadness. "Yining was fine at first. It was like this after going to the bathroom." Then she looked at he Yining and said in a low voice, "Yining asked me... She," she said after biting her lower lip, "ask me if she is ill!" Li Yunze''s eyebrows tightened more tightly. He nodded and went to why Ning''s side. Li Yunze didn''t speak, but squatted down slowly in front of he Yining. Why Ning Mu ran raised his eyes and looked at Li Yunze. Because his mind was empty, the whole line of sight also had no focal length. "Yining..." "Am I sick?" Why Ning Chi asked. Li Yunze''s heart seemed to be pricked by a needle, which made him unable to breathe. "Yining, we are people who eat cereals, and it''s normal to get sick..." Li Yunze said calmly in a soft voice, "we are doctors, and we should understand better, right?" Why Ning looked at Li Yunze with a flicker, as if he could understand, but he couldn''t understand. Li Yunze smiled and held he Yining''s hand with both hands. "Yining, you said, I''m the most powerful doctor in your mind, right?" He Yining nodded subconsciously at the sight of Li Yunze. "So, no matter what disease you have, there''s no problem with me, right?" Li Yunze held he Yining''s hand and tightened it slightly. He looked at her with firmness and strength. Why would you rather subconsciously nod again. Li Yunze smiled and took why Ning into his arms. His eyes fell on the dry Parthenocissus on the iron fence in front of him, and gently said, "Yining, as long as you believe me, all the problems are not problems... Do you believe me?" "Yes!" Why should the subconscious mind answer the voice. Li Yunze held he Yining''s hand and gently stroked her back. Such action played a soothing role. After a while, Li Yunze felt why Ning''s tense mood was slightly relaxed, and then secretly breathed out his breath. He was so afraid that he was afraid of the hard effect. Yining sealed himself again because others said she was "sick". Regardless of any condition, what I fear most is not the first treatment, but the repetition after treatment. In that way, not only will the patient be negative, but also gradually become a persistent disease. Seeing that he Yining was all right under the appeasement of Li Yunze, yanmiao put it down slightly. However, no one knows at the moment. What really caused this situation is not yanmiao''s guess at all. Someone said she was "sick"! * Al Institute. After being busy in the middle of the night, we finally processed all the failed samples. Everyone was tired and had a sore back and neck. "Let''s have a good rest tomorrow. The day after tomorrow, we will test the sample according to the second formula." The associate professor looked at everyone and said, "I hope you will make persistent efforts and the second sample will be successful." Researchers looked at each other, smiled and clapped their hands, giving each other encouragement. People will not take things out of the research room one after another. After Wang Yueqiang left the research room, he didn''t go back to his apartment, but went to the supermarket. In the daily necessities shopping area, he saw Zheng Hao picking things there, looked around, walked over, pretended to pick things and said: "this sample failed, I feel it''s expected..." "Why do you say that?" Zheng Hao put a bottle of shaving water into the shopping cart and continued to look at the razor. Wang Yueqiang said: "it just feels like it''s to delay time..." Zheng Hao''s selected action stalled and his eyes were slightly deep. "Did Li Yunze find anything?" "It''s possible, but I think if he finds out, shouldn''t he just kick people out of the research group for a reason?" Wang Yueqiang analyzed, "if you don''t want people to doubt, you can eliminate two or three together. It''s totally possible." "Just keep it. I''ll contact you if there are any new instructions left." Zheng Hao put the razor in the shopping cart. Without saying anything, the cart left. * The gear of time rotates in circles, just like fate. Everyone can''t escape its inherent track The most interesting thing in Los Angeles recently is still the duel between Mo Shaochen, the great God of the criminal debate circle, and Li Xiaoyue, the new star. As the hearing day is getting closer and closer, everyone''s enthusiasm for discussion and attention is rising. In this world, where there is sunshine, there is darkness. On the balance of law, no matter how you want to make one side unbalanced, the final result seems to be unable to achieve your wish. But some people are free outside the balance. After all, there are not only black and white in this world The research in the villa has reached a critical juncture. Today, dissolve the last reagent into the previous sample. As long as it is successful, it will be completed. Li Yunze drove to Shuya hospital, hung up his Bluetooth headset and dialed he Yining. While connecting, he subconsciously looked at the position of the co pilot. "Yining, guess what I got for you today?" Chapter 1562 "What?" Why Ning asked subconsciously. Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "You like it very much. I''ve talked about it before..." "Short mother-in-law''s sesame cake?" He Yining asked suspiciously. Li Yunze smiled, "yes, I went to the pharmaceutical factory to do business this afternoon and unexpectedly met the short mother-in-law... It turned out that her lost daughter found her and lived with her, so I didn''t sell sesame cakes in the alley over there." "Really, that''s great!" He Yining said from the heart. In the past, many people liked to buy sesame cake from the dwarf mother-in-law because it was delicious and because everyone felt heartache and sympathy for the experience of the dwarf mother-in-law. Many people say that when they are in school, they want to enter the society. But after really entering the society, I found that the best time of life is when I go to school Li Yunze''s car stopped on a side road. Listening to why Ning said the past, the smile from the corners of his mouth gradually spread. After going out to eat string incense with yanmiao that day, why didn''t she slow down for several days Li Yunze put more thought into how to change. This sesame cake, of course, is not that he accidentally met the dwarf mother-in-law. Just to find the dwarf mother-in-law, he used almost all the people of the Dragon boss in Los Angeles, and he found it today. He made a special trip. He not only got the sesame cake made by the dwarf mother-in-law, but also learned how to make it He wants to put Yining in front of her the next time he wants to eat! Seeing why Ning ate sesame cake with satisfaction on his face, Li Yunze propped his elbow on the steering wheel and smiled at the corners of his mouth. "Really eat well, as in memory!" Why should I rather suck the sesame seeds that fell out of my hand and look at Li Yunze with a beautiful smile. "I''m so good. Do you want to reward me?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. He Yining handed over a sesame cake and said, "here you are... Well, take a bite." "Just one bite?" Li Yunze was dissatisfied. He Yining nodded seriously, "if you don''t eat, you won''t have a bite." Li Yunze sighed and shook his head. He stepped forward, put another hand under he Yining and bit. He Yining immediately retracted and bit down where Li Yunze had bitten. The happiness on his face made Li Yunze roll down his Adam''s apple "Yining..." Li Yunze''s throat was a little hoarse. "Huh?" The sesame cake was still in his mouth. Li Yunze''s eyes narrowed slightly. At this moment, he forgot why Ning''s sensitivity, but instinctively. His big palm had held her cheek, and his lips had gathered up He Yining''s body tightened in an instant. She suddenly widened her eyes and looked at her face close at hand. At that moment, she forgot to breathe. Li Yunze didn''t kiss deeply, but his lips crossed the corners of he Yining''s lips. At the same time, the tip of his tongue drew the sesame seeds from the corners of her mouth into his mouth. Obviously, it is only a shallow action, but it is full of ambiguity. Li Yunze felt a little sick, but he also knew that it was not suitable to go further now. Li Yunze put his forehead against he Yining''s forehead, closed his eyes and felt her temperature. At the same time, he gently opened his mouth and said, "Yining, please believe me, everything will be better and everything will pass..." His voice was hoarse and severe, obviously because of forbearance, there was a slight trembling. He Yining gradually pricked his lips. Subconsciously, the tip of his tongue stuck out and licked his lips Li Yunze''s breath still remained on it. Although it was very weak, it was as if a gap had been dug in my heart as soon as I touched it. The nose is a little sour. Why would you rather gently fan your eyes, "Li Yunze..." "Yes!" Li Yunze answered softly. He Ning''s lips and hands are broken, because he Ning''s lips and hands are broken. "Well, you..." "I''m fine!" Li Yunze gently rubbed he Yining with his forehead. "As long as you''re good, I''m fine." "That..." he Yining''s face flushed fiercely. She just felt that the car was extremely hot and dry, "that, you... That..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth, slightly distanced himself, and looked helplessly and innocently at he Yining. He Yining is even more innocent. "He Yining!" Li Yunze bit his teeth angrily Why Ning''s face was even hotter. She opened her mouth and handed the sesame cake with one bite left in her hand to Li Yunze''s mouth. Li Yunze looked down and opened his mouth slightly. Why rather blush and put the sesame cake into Li Yunze''s mouth, although he knew that he suddenly leaned forward and held her hand together. A crisp electric current was transmitted from the fingertips to the whole body, as if all the bones were agitated. "Well", why would you rather subconsciously shrink your hand and blush even more. Li Yunze looked at such he Yining, coupled with the silence of his body for nearly three years. In the end... The heat flow controlled his thoughts. He fished out he Yining and kissed her with sesame cake in his mouth. This kiss, come deep and strong and ignore. He Yining was still tight at first, but because of his subconscious infatuation with Li Yunze, he gradually forgot all his thoughts and gradually sank into the world he gave On the side road, the night fell under the thick branches, and the lights were loose. Under the night of winter night, the quiet surroundings seem to become the most natural barrier The car body is shaking slightly. The cold winter outside can''t stop the rising heat flow in the car. At the moment, the heart is longing for each other, but it seems that the men and women who forget to express. There was a "mess" in the car. Li Yunze didn''t think why he would rather cooperate with him. After a fierce battle, Li Yunze was ecstatic. Of course, it''s not just because of her physical satisfaction, but why Yining''s acceptance, which means that her condition will improve At least, subconsciously, she is cooperating with him and overcoming her guilt for him! the second day. The sun shines warm on the earth, melting the previous snow. He Yining woke up in Li Yunze''s arms. This was the first time in almost three years since Li Yunze knew the reason for Li Yunhao''s accident. "Silly rather, early..." Li Yunze didn''t open his eyes. He felt why he would rather wriggle. He knew she woke up. Why rather bite the lower lip and say "morning" in a stuffy voice! Li Yunze slowly opened his eyes and sighed, "Yining, do you have to say hello to me like this?" At the moment, he Yining''s face is buried at the connection between Li Yunze''s arms and chest. She gives a stuffy "morning", and the heat is spread all over her skin. It''s hard to make people not... React early in the morning! Chapter 1563 It is said that if something cannot be solved between men and women, sex must be the most direct way to solve it. On the one hand, he Yining''s emotional illness comes from his guilt and remorse for Li Yunhao. On the other hand, it comes from the self imprisonment under the extravagant expectation of knowing that he can''t be with Li Yunze. Under the slow guidance of Li Yunze during this period of time, he Yining had gradually improved, but she almost closed herself again because of the phone call and "sick". Fortunately, Li Yunze didn''t avoid why she was "sick" at that time, and let her understand that as long as he was there, no matter what disease she was ill, it was not a matter! With Li Yunze''s efforts these days, he Yining was almost surrounded by him Good time, good atmosphere, plus good time. It seems that it is natural to have each other. Who can say that Li Yunze didn''t think with a little care? Obviously, he was successful. They get up, wash and have breakfast together. Compared with the silence of each other before, now two people can have some communication. Of course, Li Yunze did not dare to relax at all, for fear that he Yining''s condition was due to the fantasy under "reflection". "I''ll pick you up in the evening, and then we''ll wait for the results together... Huh?" Li Yunze gently rubbed he Yining''s hand. He Yining''s face was a little red because of the ambiguous love left last night. She nodded. She didn''t know what the mood was. She withdrew her hand and hurried out of the car. Li Yunze looked at why Ning entered the building, then smiled back, started the car and left Shuya. At the outpatient department, Zheng Hao stood there with a registration form in his hand, watched Li Yunze''s car leave, glanced at the direction of the inpatient department, and a shallow sneer overflowed from the corner of his mouth. Zheng Hao threw the registration form into the dustbin and went to his car. After getting on the bus, he dialed Meng Yi. "According to the situation I''ve been with these days, he Yining looks ok..." Zheng haodun said, "however, maybe as dinif said, emotional illness sometimes gives people an illusion and forms self-protection." Meng Yi picked up the coffee and drank. The bitterness in the mouth made people nervous. "I don''t care if he Yining really has an emotional disease. Now I just need to determine how far Li Yunze''s attitude towards her has come." "Very good!" Zheng Hao gave two words, very sure. Meng Yi''s mouth flashed a sneer, and his eyes burst out with vicious eyes. Li Yunze, I''ve been waiting for so many years. I will never allow any accidents at the last moment ¡­¡­ "The due date is still half a month," Dr. Ge said with a smile after checking Jane mo. "everything has been fine recently. Just wait for the baby to be born." "I can''t wait..." Jane Mo smiled and stroked her big belly, feeling the joy of the little guy coming. Gu Beichen squatted on the ground, wearing shoes for Jian Mo, with serious and delicate movements. Dr. Ge is now familiar with the image of Gu Beichen''s wife slave. After explaining some things, he left and sent them away. "Has Yunze been busy with the Research Institute recently?" Jane Mo forked her waist. Accompanied by Gu Beichen, she seemed to have a sense of seeing the old Buddha. "Well, the first batch of samples failed, and the second batch of samples are already being prepared." Gu Beichen opened his mouth faintly, helped Jane Mo and frowned slightly. Every time he saw Mo''er working so hard, he wanted to hold her and let her relax. But Mo''er said he wanted to walk, which made him more nervous than her every time, and she couldn''t see it. "Gu Zong, have you noticed that you haven''t been working well lately." Jane Mo looked at Gu Beichen and knew he was nervous and said deliberately. "Xiao Jing, the vice president, is not a decoration. He is young and has nothing to do with more work." Gu Beichen pressed the elevator. Jane Mo smiled, "J said yesterday that he heard Xiao Jing speak ill of you all the time..." "Well, the year-end bonus will be given soon." Gu Beichen''s voice was always calm. Jian Mo was stunned at first, and then looked at Gu Beichen and smiled, "I said, Mr. Gu, can we stop talking about Xiao Jing''s year-end bonus?" "He loves his year-end bonus..." Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen''s serious pit brother, who was very cute. The most important thing is "Chen, can you not be so nervous?" With a slight sigh, Jane Mo propped her waist into the elevator. Gu Beichen was stunned and followed in. "There''s no way. It''s the first time to meet little life with you. I said it''s a lie if I''m not nervous." Jian Mo circled Gu Beichen''s arm, leaned his head on his shoulder, looked at the number of the elevator falling, and said in a quiet voice: "ah Chen, I''m very happy now, and I''m relieved about Xiao Yan... So please don''t be careful for me." Gu Beichen''s thin lips flicked and looked at Jian Mo''s line of sight. "I hope everyone around me is happy now..." Jian Mo smiled. "It''s time to find someone in the south. Yunze and Yining don''t know whether they will hold a wedding after the new year... And Zixiao and Zhang Nian!" For Jane Mo, she has become more and more interested in matchmaking since she was pregnant with the baby. Gu Beichen said that her wife has really broken her heart. Yunze and Yining, as well as Li Yunhao''s research, Gu Beichen didn''t make it clear to Jian mo. On the one hand, he didn''t want her to worry when she was pregnant. On the other hand... There are some things that others really can''t intervene. "Alas, I haven''t seen one by one for a long time..." Jane Mo sighed when the elevator arrived. "According to Yunze, it is possible to come back one by one this year." "Really?" Jane Mo immediately came to the spirit. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo and sighed helplessly, "Mo''er, Xiaojie and one by one are still young. You''re a matchmaker. Won''t they both fight?" "But don''t you think it''s suitable?" Jian Mo said with bright eyes, "although the milk bag is good for everyone, it is obviously better for one by one! Moreover, how good is it that our son and Yunze Yining''s daughter are together?" "..." Gu Beichen gathered a cotton padded jacket for Jian mo. "What do you mean by that expression?" Jane quit. Gu Beichen''s cold, carved face showed a slight smile. Looking at Jian Mo''s appearance of "if you dare say I''m wrong, I''ll show you a good look", his smile deepened. "They worry about the children themselves, huh?" Gu Beichen raised his hand, gently stroked Jian Mo''s cheek and said softly, "Mo''er, don''t you think you''ve been worried about other people''s things so much that... You don''t care about me very much?" "My heart is yours. Are you still jealous?" Jane Mo stared angrily and left Huakang with Gu Beichen. ¡­¡­ Villa lab. He Ning swallowed more tightly. The success of the potion depends on tonight "Li Yunze, I''m a little nervous!" He Yining twisted his eyebrows and looked at Li Yunze. Chapter 1564 Li Yunze came forward, took why Ning into his arms, felt her tight body, and her eyes gradually became deep "Yining, I......" Li Yunze''s voice was low and firm. "Failure is not allowed!" How could he allow failure?! Eldest brother''s last wish even involves Yining''s illness and the future of both of them He is not allowed to fail. He is still waiting to come back one by one for the new year to let everyone know that he has a daughter. That''s his daughter and enin''s daughter! Why Ning zhe the lower lip corner and nodded slightly in Li Yunze''s arms, "I believe you." She looked up slightly, her eyes flashing light under the complex emotion, "you can!" Li Yunze attached himself and gently kissed he Yining on his forehead. He closed his eyes, gently rubbed he Yining''s forehead with his forehead, comforted her, and gently said, "Yining, as long as you''re around, I don''t think there''s anything wrong... You," his voice trembled slightly, "do you understand?" He Yining''s body trembled slightly, her hand clenched gently, and there was some confusion in her mind. He Yining felt the breath on his body. Li Yunze sighed secretly, took her into his arms again, and pressed the back of her head on his chest with his big palm. "Yining, do you hear me?" Li Yunze said softly, "it''s jumping for you." "Li Yunze..." He Yining began to panic. She bit her lip and was at a loss. She didn''t know what to say? Li Yunze smiled at the corners of his mouth and said with a touch of teasing in his voice: "Yining, you''ve been excited about me for so long, and now you''re shy. Is it a little late?" "Li Yunze!" He Yining is a little annoyed. Li Yunze let go of he Yining, looked at her angry look, raised his fingers and gently flicked on her forehead, "silly Ning..." He Yining only felt that the position of his heart was shaken and looked at Li Yunze with a loss in the depths of his eyes. The feeling that the tip of an iceberg was broken made her wonder how to clear her mind Li Yunze paid attention to why Yining''s thoughts. He was not in a hurry. He just needed Yining to accept him subconsciously. "Let''s go, eat first..." Li Yunze said, holding he Yining''s hand and leaving the laboratory. They didn''t go out to eat. After all, at a critical juncture, it''s impossible for anyone to really relax. "Yining..." "Huh?" He Yining just wanted to serve soup. When he heard Li Yunze shouting, he stopped halfway. Li Yunze naturally took her bowl and filled her with soup and said, "after the new year, let''s go to school in Los Angeles one by one. Do you think we should continue the same school with Xiaojie, or do we want to make their distance beautiful?" He Yining had some thoughts in his heart, which seemed to be resistance and excitement. He couldn''t say. After receiving the soup handed over by Li Yunze, he Yining said, "look at yourself one by one!" Paused, "I seem to like foreign countries very much recently..." Li Yunze looked at he Yining and frowned slightly. "You mean, one by one, it''s possible to choose foreign countries instead of living with us?" He Yining suddenly ''cluttered'' in his heart and looked at Li Yunze. He didn''t know how to answer. Li Yunze''s deep eyes showed a trace of unclear emotion, which made him a little flustered. Is he too much whitewash? Yining, in fact, is not as good as it seems Thinking like this in his heart, Li Yunze did not dare to show anything. He could not even talk about this topic deeply. He was deeply afraid that he would rather force himself into a dead corner. After dinner, Li Yunze leaned on the door frame with his arms around his chest and looked at why he would rather wash the dishes. Looking at her slender back, Li Yunze thought about what to do to make her put down her guilt for him and her eldest brother and not confine herself. Take out your mobile phone and Li Yunze calls up the calendar There''s a reminder on the calendar. There''s still a week left. Looking up, Li Yunze looked at he Yining again and thought that maybe that day was an opportunity How long will Li Yunyuan send a text message to Li Yunyuan again? As soon as Li Jiyuan got home, he received a short message from Li Yunze and thought about his reply: at least one month. Li Yunze frowned: it''s been too long. I don''t want to dream too much at night. Li Jiyuan naturally knows that if the medicine is successful, it must win the patent protection in the shortest time, otherwise all problems will become unknown. After thinking about it, Li Jiyuan dialed back When the mobile phone vibrated, Li Yunze looked at he Yining, turned to the French window and picked it up, "Dad!" "I''m afraid it will take 20 days as soon as the whole procedure comes down." Li Jiyuan sighed, "our country is fine, because it involves applying for international patent protection. Even if we go through the green channel, there is no way to go through the formalities." "Then go through the abnormal procedures and start the application tomorrow, so as to make my finished products come out and directly go through the international procedures." Li Yunze said with deep eyes. Li Jiyuan frowned, "Yunze, do you know the risk of doing so?" The experiment is not absolute. Maybe you look successful, but there are also those who fall short at the last minute. The success of the sample does not mean the success of the finished product. If you go through the procedure in advance, you will finally find that it has failed It can be said that Li Yunze is betting with the whole Li family. "I know..." Li Yunze glanced at the direction of the kitchen, "but I have to do this!" Desperate is not his style, but I''d rather have been persistent for him for more than ten years. Why can''t he go crazy for her once? Li Jiyuan''s eyebrows tightened even tighter. For a long time, he didn''t speak. "Dad, do you believe me?" Li Yunze asked, "if you fail, you may lose the whole Li family, but if you succeed..." he paused and said seriously, "I''ll give you a family happiness!" No matter Jinxi or him, maybe, he will completely come out of the big brother''s imprisonment! "Let me think..." Li Jiyuan didn''t hang up the phone, but stomped back and forth in the villa. Suddenly, he stopped and his eyes fell on the family photo of Li''s family. Above, he and his wife looked satisfied. Li Yunhao''s smile is bright and gentle, so full of youth. Li Jinxi and Li Yunze were still childish on their faces. At a glance, the whole family was full of peace. "OK..." Li Jiyuan said, "I''ll go to the patent office tomorrow." "No!" Li Yunze hurriedly stopped. Li Jiyuan instantly understood Li Yunze''s meaning and slightly twisted his eyebrows, "go lvtong. If I don''t go there, I''m afraid I can''t go through the formalities..." Li Yunze certainly understands that some things are inevitable. After wringing his eyebrows, Li Yunze''s eyes deepened, "I want to find a way. In the early stage, any relevant person of the Li family can''t appear in the patent office!" Chapter 1565 Li Jiyuan didn''t know what Li Yunze wanted, and he didn''t ask much. Li yunzexu does not have Li Yunhao''s talent in medical research, but he is never bad. The most important thing is that after Li Yunhao''s work, Li Yunze obviously needs to be calm in doing anything "OK," Li Jiyuan paused and said, "Yunze, no matter what your decision is, dad will support you." Li Yunze''s heart suddenly tightened, and his nose was a little sour and asked, "Dad, do you know?" Li Jiyuan was silent, "I guessed." Originally, Yining was going to marry Yunze, but then suddenly he didn''t marry again. In fact, he didn''t think much After all, Yunze and Yining go around, and it''s not surprising to go around a few more times. However, in the past two years, even if Yunze and Yining whitewash peace on the surface, he still feels something. Although he didn''t say... He probably guessed it was his own son. Li Jiyuan sighed, "Yunze, dad is old. After losing your mother and Yunhao, his heart is not as strong as before... Now, dad doesn''t have any ideas. You can have a good relationship with Jinxi and be happy. Dad can explain to your mother in the future." Li Yunze''s eyes were slightly red. His hand holding the mobile phone was slightly tightened and kept breathing deeply, so that his mood would not get out of control. "Dad, thank you!" Li Jiyuan sighed and smiled, "well, do what you want to do. The whole Li family is your backing." "OK..." Li Yunze took a breath and hung up the phone. When I turned my head, I saw he Yining standing at the kitchen door, looking at him timidly. "What''s the matter, huh?" Li Yunze asked. Why did Ning zhe lower the corner of his mouth and didn''t say anything, just came over and hugged Li Yunze''s waist. Li Yunze was shocked by why Ning''s sudden action, and then took her into his arms. "Li Yunze..." "Yes!" "Everything will go well, won''t it?" He Yining said with some uneasiness. Li Yunze hugged him tightly. "Everything will go well..." he narrowed the time slightly and said in a far-reaching voice, "everything will go well." Not only research, but also your dream, our future! ¡­¡­ Fang Xiran was depressed and even frustrated. "Even if this two-day vacation is more and more abnormal!" Grandma Fang and her maid, sister Yao, were cutting fruit while studying Fang Xiran, who was constantly dialing the console with the remote control. Sister Yao smiled and said, "Miss, it''s love." Grandma Fang nodded. "I look like it too," she paused. "But it''s estimated that the arrogant girl of our family kicked the iron plate this time." Sister Yao smiled, "I don''t know who the other party is. Unexpectedly, Miss Yao can take a vacation for him..." "Whoever it is, it must not be Li''s boy." Grandma Fang sighed, "Alas, actually I''m quite optimistic about the Li family boy... But ah, this emotional thing is really reluctant." As they were talking, Fang Xiran''s mobile phone suddenly rang. Seeing that it was Li Yunze, she was a little confused and answered, "Why are you calling me so strange?" "I need your help." Li Yunze came straight to the point, "I''ll help you chase Jin shaosi." Fang Xiran''s eyes lit up first and then calmed down. "It''s not easy to see it." "If it''s simple, do you think I''ll give you this condition to seduce you?" Li Yunze sneered. Fang Xiran left his mouth and didn''t ask anything on the phone. He just made an appointment with Li Yunze to meet in Huakang. "Are you going out?" He Yining just came out of the study with the book in his arms. "There''s something wrong with the hospital. I''ll go there and come back in a minute..." Li Yunze gently stroked he Yining''s hair. He Yining nodded, "I''ll wait for you at home." "Yes." Li Yunze answered. After he Yining kissed on his forehead, he turned and left. ¡­¡­ While sitting opposite Li Yunze, Fang Xiran asked, "come on, what''s the matter?" "I want to use your grandfather''s rights." Li Yunze spoke directly. Fang Xi ran frowned, "Li Yunze, if you need to use my grandfather''s rights, it seems that you or your father can find it directly? You still need to pass me?" "We can''t come forward." Li Yunze paused and said what he was studying. Fang Xi Ran''s mouth jerked, "how dare you tell me about it!" "I have to believe you for both public and private..." Li Yunze said. "So, can you understand what I mean now?" Fang Xilan looked at Li Yunze and restrained his charming state when chasing Jin shaosi these days. At the moment, she is the iron lady standing on many men and the instructor of the reconnaissance company with sensitivity. "Li Yunze, do you know you''re playing with fire?" Fang Xi said calmly. "I don''t need your reminder!" Li Yunze''s voice was calm. Fang Xi ran sneered, "why do you want to be peaceful?" "Yes!" Li Yunze''s voice was firm. "You''re crazy..." Fang Xi ran shook his head. Li Yunze narrowed his eyes slightly, "Fang Xiran, would you do the same for Jin shaosi?" Fang Xiran didn''t answer immediately. After a while, he slowly said, "I can do it without violating the interests of the country and the people!" It''s not that you don''t love, but that you can sacrifice yourself in front of great love. "Maybe..." Li Yunze''s eyes were deep. "Fang Xiran, many times, people in front of love will really go crazy." Fang Xilan looked at Li Yunze. She felt that she didn''t seem to know the man. Ming Ming is steady in his career, but because of a woman walking on a steel wire rope At the bottom, there is an abyss. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze left the hospital and went back to the villa before Fang Xiran left. The sample was about to come out. He didn''t trust why he would rather be at home alone. When he got home, he Yining fell asleep on the sofa with his book in his arms. The setting sun hit her and softened Li Yunze''s heart "Um" a light exhortation came, why Ning moved slightly and slowly opened his eyes, "Li Yunze..." Li Yunze smiled and looked at he Yining with a hint of delicacy in his laziness, as if he had seen her many years ago, sitting on the sofa in his room while waiting for him. Come forward, Li Yunze fingers gently across he Yining''s lips, attached to the body, and the lips covered it A soft kiss is full of pity. Yining, trust me, everything will be fine Li Yunze got up slowly, looked at he Yining with deep eyes, smiled and said: "the time is almost up, let''s go and get the samples together... Huh?" "I......" why Ning Zhe''s lower lip, a little worried. Li Yunze smiled and gave her a stable hand. "Yining, what should come always comes. Sometimes we can''t choose to escape, okay?" Chapter 1566 He Yining''s vision of Shangli Yunze, his firmness and encouragement, gave her subconscious peace of mind. With a slight nod, why did Ning zhe go to the laboratory with Li Yunze. The sample was taken out and then put into the decomposition instrument for experiment When drugs come out, they need clinical trials. After more than two years and nearly three years, he kept testing in order to be safe in clinical trials The analysis results are printed by the instrument printer. With the of the results, we need to know why Ning''s heart has gradually solidified. The sound of "drop" came, and the printed results came out. Li Yunze didn''t move, just looked at he Yining, "you go..." He Yining bit her lower lip and walked over step by step. When she got the result, she didn''t dare to see it. Instead, she closed her eyes and took a deep breath. After a long breath, she opened her eyes and looked at the result sheet in her hand Li Yunze didn''t move. He just looked at his tight body. As a result, he is confident, because failure is not allowed! "Li Yunze..." he Yining''s happy voice suddenly sounded. She looked back, looked at Li Yunze, shook the result sheet in her hand, and said with a smile on her face, "succeeded, succeeded..." As she spoke, her nose was sour for a moment, and a layer of water mist was already dense in her eyes. Li Yunze walked forward without taking care of the result sheet, but gently took why Yining into his arms, "Yining, because of you, so it succeeded..." He Yining didn''t know whether it was excitement or emotion. Tears poured out uncontrollably. She was already sobbing. Her hand holding the list kept clenching tightly, as if all the accumulated things were released at this moment. Li Yunze didn''t say anything, but held he Yining tightly and let her tears wet her chest. She was crying and his heart... Hurt. Yining, I know what this result carries for you, so I don''t allow failure Brother''s research was successful. You and I completed it together. From then on, we put down our guilt and everything to brother! In the future, you and I will go together He Yining didn''t know how long she cried, until she finally had no tears. "Yining..." Li Yunze called softly. He Yining didn''t answer, but was quiet, as if some thoughts were distracted because he cried too long. Li Yunze sighed quietly, let go of he Yining, looked at her crying red and swollen eyes, and was very distressed "Li Yunze, did you really succeed?" He Yining''s voice is completely hoarse after crying. Li Yunze nodded, "Yining, it''s successful, so..." he paused and said, "I''ve put down the shackles attached to our hearts. What about... You?" Finally, Li Yunze''s heart was raised. On the one hand, he should consider he Yining''s emotional illness, on the other hand, he must let her face it. Only when we face it, can we solve it directly. Escape, even if he is good at medicine, there is no way! He Yining''s eyes are in a trance and resist. She doesn''t want to think deeply about Li Yunze''s problem "Well, the results come out. Everything can be done slowly." Li Yunze didn''t dare to force he Yining too much. "Go wash first, huh?" He Yining obviously relaxed his tone secretly because Li Yunze didn''t force him. "I''ll wait for you to finish here and go up together..." he Yining said in a stuffy voice. Li Yunze nodded, "OK!" They handled the follow-up problems together, put the samples into the special closed pipe and then into the specially treated cold box, checked it again, and then left the underground laboratory The night is peaceful and quiet. The stars in the ink sky nodded, indicating the good weather the next day "Fang Xiran has been to Huakang today. If there is no accident, it is estimated that Li Yunze wants to take some special channels through the rights of Fang Jishan political commissar..." The person in charge of Mo palace Los Angeles listened to the report from the people below and frowned slightly, "didn''t you hear that the sample failed?" "Qin Shao said before. I''m afraid it''s a cover up." The man frowned, "it''s just that Fang Xiran went to Huakang. It''s my guess that Li Yunze wants to use Fang Jishan''s right." The person in charge listened, silently looked at Mo Kong and thought slightly. "Qin Shao won''t make unfounded guesses..." the person in charge took back his sight. "Although he doesn''t know how Li Yunze did it under the cover, it''s not impossible to cheat those coveted people because of Gu Beichen''s current ability and the help of dragon owl." "Then..." the reporter stopped talking. "Secretly observe the forces of all parties to see if anyone wants to follow each other." The person in charge said, "although Fang Xiran is engaged in investigation, he has too little practical experience in the end. It is not impossible for someone who wants to find something." "I understand. We''ve arranged for people to pay attention and confuse everyone''s attention." If the attention of Mo palace is paid to other places, it will attract the attention of some people to a great extent. Then, the real finished products will naturally receive less attention. The person in charge nodded and motioned the man to go down. After the man left, the person in charge dialed Shi Shaoqin Shi Shaoqin just coaxed star to sleep. Now the little guy is more and more attached to him because of drugs. He is determined not to sleep without him. The mobile phone is silent when star sleeps. Shi Shaoqin glances at the mobile phone flashing on the screen. He first looks at star, then turns to get the mobile phone and whispers out of the bedroom Pick up the phone and put it in your ear. "Qin Shao..." the person in charge said after talking about the situation in Los Angeles, "I think Li Yunze should go through the approval process of Fang Jishan." Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window at the end of the ancient castle corridor with one hand, looked at the sea connected with moye outside, and said indifferently: "there is no accident. I''m afraid I have to start the procedure tomorrow..." The person in charge was stunned, "but the finished product was not sent?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t say much, but said faintly: "after Li Yunze sent the medicine to the patent office, he removed the person..." "Yes!" The person in charge answered. The dark world has the rules of the dark world. The Mo palace has broken the rules by doing so. If it continues to pay attention, it will have a bad impact on the Mo palace The person in charge knows this very well and believes that Mo palace has done its utmost. The next day, the weather was really good. Early in the morning, the sun lazily shrouded the earth. When he Ning woke up, Li Yunze had already made breakfast. "You only go to work in the afternoon," Li Yunze asked with a smile. "Do you want to go to the research institute with me in the morning?" Chapter 1567 "Go there..." why would you rather wring your eyebrows and hesitate. Li Yunze smiled and said, "well, I''ll go over and have a look, and then you go to Huakang with me..." paused, "of course, mainly because I don''t want to eat alone at noon." Why should I nod at the corner of my mouth. Li Yunze''s smile deepened a little, changed the topic, and talked relaxed, which could make he Yining relax. After breakfast, they went to the research institute together This is the first time why Yining came to the Institute since Li Yunze and he Yining quarreled. It''s different from the first time I came here. It''s also different from the day when the Institute was established. Everything is new and makes people feel unpopular. Today''s Institute is full of light disinfectant that belongs to the hospital but doesn''t have a strong taste. For Li Yunze and he Yining, such breath, like air, makes them realize that it has become a physical need. The people in the Institute didn''t think of why they would rather come back. They smiled and greeted one after another and continued their work. "How could it fail?" He Yining said regretfully. Li Yunze smiled. "I''m not omnipotent... Of course I''ll fail." He Yining looked at Li Yunze, subconsciously came forward and circled his arms and said, "in my eyes, you are omnipotent and will not fail!" Li Yunze stared at he Yining deeply, and a shallow smile gradually overflowed from the corners of his mouth. In any case, Yining subconsciously went deep into his bone and blood''s love for him and never stopped Therefore, he is not worried. Yining''s disease will be better. After Li Yunze handled the affairs of the Research Institute, he Yining went to Huakang with him. Recently, the two people basically sprinkled dog food in Shuya. Huakang people only heard about the two people from reports and familiar Shuya people. Today, they were sprinkled with dog food face to face, and immediately shouted "I can''t stand it" one by one! "Yan Yan, let''s have dinner together..." why should Ning pick his eyebrow and say. Yanmiao looked at why Yining, which was much better than the last time he ate a string of incense. While secretly breathing, he had to admire Li Yunze''s intentions. "OK..." "Good what good?" Yan Miao was interrupted before he finished his words. Yanmiao bared his teeth, rolled his eyes, turned his head to Huo Qishen, and said with gnashing teeth, "are you chrysanthemum cracked again, or do you want to see the prostate... Running to the hospital all day "You''re getting more and more vicious!" Huo Qi dissatisfied with the Tucao, and walked forward, and make complaints about why. "I''m vicious. It''s none of your business. You asked for it!" Yanmiao sneered. "My good man won''t fight with you..." Huo Qishen snorted, "people love each other and eat together. Why do you love to be a light bulb so much?" "Ha ha!" Yan Miao laughed, "when Fang Xiran and Jin shaosi had dinner together, I think you were very happy when you were a light bulb... Besides, I just ate simply. Unlike some people, it was a real thousands of watt light bulb." "Yan Miao, you have the guts to say it again!" "Sorry, I''m a woman. I really don''t have seed!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± He Yining watched the two people tit for tat again, and couldn''t help laughing, "forget it, I''d better go to eat with Li Yunze!" That way, it''s all ''you go on''! Behind him came the voice of Yan Miao and Huo Qishen bickering. Why Ning sighed and shook his head. Seeing what Li Yunze and the director of the Department said, she came over. She didn''t move any more and waited in place. "You can deal with the rest. Unless there is any special situation before the year, there should be no major operation arrangement..." Li Yunze stopped and said, "Mayor Fu''s son will review after the year, and remember to make preparations in the early stage." "I see." After the director answered, he Yining nodded and left. Li Yunze came forward, first looked at yanmiao and Huo Qishen, then took he Yining''s hand and went to the direction of the elevator. "Why don''t you ask me why I don''t shout Yan Yan?" He Yining fanned his eyes. "Huo Qishen has been a frequent visitor of Huakang since Fang Xiran began to chase Jin shaosi." Li Yunze pressed the elevator down, "the fate between people is very wonderful. He doesn''t know why he always likes to come to Huakang at this moment. When he knows it later, it will come naturally." "You mean, in fact, Huo Qishen is moved by the heat?" Why Ning suddenly brightened his eyes. "Estimated." Li Yunze arrived in the elevator and pulled he Yining into the elevator. "However, the feelings are still cold and warm. Others can push it, mainly depending on themselves." He Yining was silenced by the words of meaning. She looked at Li Yunze''s face, raised her lower lip and took back her sight. Li Yunze Yu Guang stared at he Yining and saw that she was always a little afraid to take this step. Although she was anxious, she also understood that everything should be done slowly. "Di" sound, just when the elevator arrived, Li Yunze sent a text message from his mobile phone. Fang Xiran: done. Two words, Li Yunze''s mouth slightly overflowed with a shallow smile. At the same time, Fang Xilan sent another text message: remember what you said! Li Yunze''s smile from the corner of his mouth deepened. Reply: helping you is equal to helping myself. Don''t worry, I will spare no effort. ¡­¡­ Meng Yi''s mood has been slightly fluctuating these days, which is an instinctive response to his sensitivity to things over the years. Gently tap the glass window with your fingers, and your vision falls outside. Gradually, your eyes can''t see to the end He will start from returning to Los Angeles with Qu Weiwei. Everything has been deliberated in the past few days. On the surface, there is nothing wrong, but it seems that there is something wrong. "What went wrong..." Meng Yi''s fingers beating the glass window paused slightly, and his eyebrows gradually frowned. He didn''t believe that after Li Yunze got the two manuscripts, he wouldn''t pay attention to Li Yunhao''s research. Even if al Research Institute has nothing to do with Li Yunhao''s research, it will not have no response to the research. Meng Yi''s eyebrows grew tighter and tighter. From front to back, he thought carefully about the past two years and three years. There was a sound of opening the door behind him. Meng Yi was the moment Zheng Hao pushed the door in. His mind suddenly moved. Meng Yi''s eyes narrowed and opened suddenly. He couldn''t figure out the problem all the time, as if he had some eyebrows. "What''s the matter?" Seeing that Meng Yi''s face was not right, Zheng Hao frowned and asked. Meng Yi turned slowly. "You said before that people who once heard Shuya said that the relationship between he Yining and Li Yunze was strange?" "Ah?" Zheng Hao was stunned. It took him a while to react, "this was more than a year ago. What''s the matter?" Meng Yi didn''t answer, but went to the water dispenser, took a glass of water, leaned against the side cabinet and drank. Thoughts did not stop. When Meng Yi put the cup on one side of the cabinet, he slowly opened his mouth: "I think Li Yunze used the research institute to cover up and attracted everyone''s attention. In fact, the research was carried out separately." Chapter 1568 "Doesn''t make sense?!" Zheng Hao wrung his eyebrows and sat down. "There are a lot of large-scale equipment alone for that kind of research, and it must be new equipment, so as not to be polluted and lead to component failure." Meng Yi looks at Zheng Hao and doesn''t refute him because it''s a fact. "In this case, there must be big actions, and how can big actions escape our eyes?" Zheng Hao thought, already wring his eyebrows. Meng Yi tilted his head, gently rubbed his fingers and put the water cup aside. Looking at the water inside, he gently shook and slowly opened his mouth: "I''m thinking that Li Yunze and Ning have had a showdown before. The relationship between the two people is obviously bad, but why do they go back to the villa as long as they have nothing to hold?" "You mean..." Zheng haodun said, "it''s impossible. We''ve explored it ourselves. There''s nothing there?!" "Not there. What about next door?" Meng Yi asked. The movement on his hand paused and looked at Zheng Hao. "I''ve explored you next door myself!" "Yes, I''ve seen it too..." Meng Yi said slowly, "but there was no big furniture at that time, didn''t it?" Paused, "the other party said that the owner of the house is a nouveau riche and likes European style to show his noble spirit." Meng Yi said, with a slight sarcastic arc in the corner of his mouth, "our attention was basically in Li Yunze''s villa. Going there was also to observe Li Yunze''s villa, but we ignored it. It may be the real confusion next door." "You mean, it''s possible that the place where Li Yunze really wants to do the experiment is the one next door, and the so-called European style furniture is actually a large piece of research equipment?!" Zheng Hao suddenly stood up, obviously surprised and unable to accept. Meng Yi didn''t fluctuate like him, but slowly said, "I just can''t figure it out. The failure of the sample in the research room is unreasonable, isn''t it?" "Then..." "Maybe, from beginning to end, our focus is wrong..." Meng Yi''s eyes deepened and some cold breath crossed, "it''s not Li Yunze''s villa, but the villa next door to him." "I''ll find someone to explore." Zheng Hao didn''t dare to delay, so he quickly turned and walked out. "What did you come to me for?" Meng Yi shouted at him. Zheng Hao patted his forehead, turned around and said, "what I want to say is that the people in the Mo palace appear frequently in the research room recently." he paused. "You said, since they stare at the research room, do we think too much?" Meng Yi sniffed coldly, "the Mo palace is not omnipotent. Shi Shaoqin didn''t sit down in Los Angeles himself. What big waves can he turn out by the people in the Mo palace?" "Yes," Zheng Hao nodded. "After all, the people in Mo palace haven''t been staring at Li''s house for so long. Many things are certainly not as thoughtful as you think." "You should find someone to explore as soon as possible." Meng Yi frowned, "if there is no wrong estimation, it is likely that the research has come out." Zheng Hao nodded solemnly, turned and left in a hurry. ¡­¡­ Flower dance cafe. When Shen Chu hurried there with a pile of design drawings in his hand, he saw Li Jinxi holding his cheek and looking out of the window. "What do you think?" Shen Chu sat down and put the design aside. "Jian Mo is about to give birth. Gu Beichen''s wife slave has put all his work on me... Inhuman!" Li Jinxi looked back and smiled at Shen Chu. "Seriously, I can''t believe it until now. You and Mo Mo have become friends and can be calm about Beichen." "There''s nothing wrong. Let yourself go, won''t you?" Shen Chu didn''t think so. After ordering a cup of coffee and a piece of cake, he said, "I''ve also insisted. If I can''t insist, I''d better let myself go." Li Jinxi looked at Shen Chu and was slightly distracted. She suddenly felt that she was the same as Shen Chu who used to be at the tip of a bull''s horn. Instead, Shen Chu has become the same as herself who was nervous before. "Don''t think about those who don''t get it. They should be happy when they are alive." I like that kind of person very much, but now I''m really annoyed by her Li Jinxi smiled. "I heard from Chen Yu that the new play of road director recently put aside the challenge and said that he wanted to find a plain person to be the heroine... Well, I heard that the name is the same as you!" When Lu Haotian was mentioned, Shen Chu immediately rolled his eyes and clenched his teeth. His facial expression was particularly vivid. "The road guide is very talented. In fact, if appropriate, you can contact..." "Ghosts associate with him!" Shen Chu gnashed his teeth. "Don''t talk about him. If you talk about him, I''m not well." Li Jinxi looked at Shen Chu''s manic appearance and his smile deepened. "Today, I was entrusted by Mrs. Gu, who was about to give birth, but cared about everyone and broke all people''s hearts..." Shen Chu put his arms on the table, leaned forward slightly and looked at Li Jinxi, "of course, I am also very concerned." After a pause, "Jinxi, you and Chen Yu have been doing this for three years. Are you still wasting your time like this?" Li Jinxi lowered her eyes and smiled. Holding the hand of a small spoon, she stirred it in the coffee cup at will. "Xiaochu, I sometimes wonder if the heaviness of the past can really erase all people''s emotions..." she looked up and looked at Shen Chu. "Time won''t flatten and dilute the feeling." Hearing Li Jinxi say this, Shen Chu smiled, "you love Chen Yu, so time will only dilute the things you can''t face." "Maybe..." Li Jinxi lowered his eyes, "I just can''t find a breakthrough." "Alas, it''s Chen Yu who suffers like this." Shen Chu dug into the cake and said, "seriously, I think Jane Mo is the smartest of all." "Yes, she knows what she wants and is brave enough." Li Jinxi looked out of the window, "we are not brave enough, just because... We are afraid of injury!" ¡­¡­ He Yining is in the office and keeps looking at his mobile phone. "Dr. he, Dr. he..." "Ah?!" Why should I suddenly return to my mind and look back. "The director of the clinic asked you to go over," said the nurse. "The director said there were not enough people." "Well, good." Why should I rather get up, take the stethoscope and go out, and don''t forget to look at my mobile phone again. I didn''t wait for Li Yunze''s text message. Why should I carry it all in my heart. It''s been five days since the sample came out. Today she''s going to send things to the patent office. She''s worried all day. Although Li Yunze didn''t say, why should he be clear? There must be a lot of people peeping in the dark She''s afraid of an accident! Press the elevator, why rather think about whether to ask, but I''m afraid Li Yunze will worry about her. The sound of "drop" came when he Yining pressed a layer of keys. She hurriedly opened her mobile phone Chapter 1569 Li Yunze: successful delivery. I''ll go into the operating room and call you later. He Yining''s heart, which she had been carrying, was immediately put down. She hurriedly replied to the word "en" and dared not delay Li Yunze. The elevator arrived with a "Ding" sound. Why Ning walked out when the elevator door opened with a faint smile in her mouth At the same time, a woman in a hat passed her. The sound of "hissing" came. Why should Ning''s back of his hand be like an electric shock? When he hurried to shrink up, he subconsciously looked at the woman. The woman was puzzled at first. Looking at why she would rather shrink her hand in front of her chest, she seemed to be aware of something. She raised her hand and looked. Sure enough, she saw a little blood on her ring. "I''m sorry, did I scratch your ring?" The woman looked guilty. Why did Ning zhe lower the corner of his mouth, shook his head, turned and left without saying anything. The woman looked sideways at why Ning left and turned into the elevator... Just at the moment of turning around, a sneer crossed the corner of her mouth. He Yining went to the pharmacy to get a band aid. While sticking to the small wound on the back of his hand, he went to the gynecological clinic. Because the patient''s situation of the previous outpatient number was a little complicated, and there were many people waiting behind. Why would he Ning go to work after he arrived, ignoring the sudden feeling of numbness and astringency on the back of his hand. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze came out of the operating room. It was a little dark. With a slight frown, he dialed he Yining as he walked to the office "Out of the operating room?!" Why rather shook some swollen hands, "I''ve just finished my work. There are some patients in the clinic." "Well, change your clothes and I''ll pick you up now." Li Yunze said. Why should I rather answer the voice and hang up the phone. Because the sample was successfully sent to the patent office, he Yining seemed relieved, and the whole person''s mental state was obviously better. When Li Yunze received her, he saw that she was a little tired and frowned slightly. "It looks very tired..." he paused, "why don''t you go back to Dad''s side for dinner and eat some at home to rest, huh?" Why Ning smiled, "I''m fine. It''s estimated that I''ve just been asked by a pregnant woman. I''m a little dry." Li Yunze looked at he Yining again. Just when he wanted to start the car, he saw the band aid on the back of he Yining''s hand, "what''s the matter with your hand?" "Oh..." why Ning subconsciously looked at his hand, "accidentally scraped it." Then she tore off the band aid. "It''s all right." "I''ll deal with it again later," Li Yunze frowned slightly. "It''s red after scraping." "I don''t know..." he Yining looked around the trace of condensation, and there was really a piece of red. "It was scratched by metal. I guess it''s a little allergic?!" He Yining didn''t care, but asked, "how many days does the program take?" "The early stage is basically finished, and it is estimated that the rest can go through the international procedures in three or five days..." Li Yunze looked at he Yining''s hand again. He was a little worried and started the car to Li''s villa. When he arrived at the villa, Li Yunze first took the medicine box and disinfected and cleaned the back of he Yining''s hand. "Let''s see if it can be eliminated later." "Yes." He Yining didn''t refuse Li Yunze''s behavior. She didn''t want him to worry. Li Jiyuan was told by Li Yunze in advance that he Yining has an emotional illness and hasn''t completely recovered. Looking at his son''s behavior towards he Yining, Li Jiyuan sighed secretly After so many years of entanglement, so many things happened in the middle. He said he didn''t complain that Yining girl was fake, but when he complained, the eldest son couldn''t come back. Now, he only hopes that Jinxi and Yunze can do well, and Yunhao''s research can also help more patients, so he has nothing to ask for. ¡­¡­ A very ordinary car parked in front of a convenience store. A fork road not far from the convenience store is the direction to Li Yunze villa The car was full of smoke, and the light smoke haunted the whole carriage. Meng Yi extinguishes the cigarette butts in the ashtray, raises his hand, looks at the time, slowly lies back on the seat, and looks at the people waiting for the bus at the bus station in front. I don''t know how long it took. It seemed that when time was still, someone opened the door and drilled up. "How''s it going?" Meng Yi asked without looking back. "Everything is normal..." the man frowned. "The other party''s decoration is really European style. I checked all the places carefully and didn''t find it at all." Meng Yi slightly frowned, "is... The wrong direction?!" At present, the research of the Institute seems to be used to confuse people. So, where is the real research carried out? There is no problem with Li Yunze''s villa and the one next door How big are those devices?! "Is it possible that the research in the research institute is actually Li Yunhao''s?" The man asked, "Wang Yueqiang''s doubt is only doubt. After all, his attainments can''t be compared with Li Yunze and Li Yunhao." Meng Yi didn''t speak. He just tapped the steering wheel with his fingers. After a while, he slowly opened his mouth: "no, the research in the research institute won''t be the research of Li Yunhao..." he narrowed his eyes slightly. "Is there any trend over there in the patent office?" The man shook his head. "There has been no movement," he paused. "Oh, Fang Xi ran looked for Li Yunze last week." Meng Yi frowned and wondered if there was any connection between them. Fang Xiran went to Li Yunze before, but there''s nothing strange about this. In the past two years, Fang Xiran never came back from the army and didn''t find Li Yunze several times. "However, the next day, Fang Xiran blocked the time for Jin shaosi to go to Linshi." It seems that he went to Li Yunze to ask about Jin shaosi again Meng Yi''s eyebrows are frowning and tightening. He can''t feel wrong, but what''s wrong with him?! ¡­¡­ When Li Yunze returned home with he Yining, he saw that the red piece on her hand was about to disappear, and disinfected it again with a little confidence. "I guess it''s metal allergy..." he Yining opened his mouth gently. "But you have no history of metal allergy." Li Yunze thought, "wait for me." Why Ning glanced at Li Yunze? After a while, he saw him take out the needle and savings vessel, and couldn''t help but wring his eyebrows, "is it... Too exaggerated?!" "Be careful, you can prevent it in the future." Li Yunze skillfully drew blood for he Yining and directly took the blood sample to the laboratory for testing. As a result, all the data were normal and showed no allergy to metals. Li Yunze doesn''t know why, but he is still a little worried. Take a look at the remaining blood samples in the blood storage vessels, take them for storage, and plan to take them to Huakang pathology room for systematic analysis tomorrow. Chapter 1570 Li Yunze left the laboratory, and he Yining put the vegetables brought back from the greenhouse of Li''s villa into the refrigerator. "Is there a problem?" He Yining asked. Li Yunze shook his head with a smile. Seeing why he would rather say something, he said with a slight eyebrow: "well, I know, you think I''m making a fuss." Why would you rather export it? Li Yunze "rejected" it. Then he blinked with a smile from the corners of his mouth. "You''re making a fuss..." he paused. "Who doesn''t have a scratch, and the redness around the wound is not necessarily allergic. There are many external reasons." "No way, I''m an occupational disease!" Li Yunze said, taking why Ning into his arms and holding it gently. "Occupation disease is very good..." why rather gently make complaints about the sound. Li Yunze laughed and hugged him a little tighter. Whether Yining is whitewashing Taiping or really getting better, he believes that as long as he insists and makes her feel his love and the sense of security he gives her, she will get better "I can''t wait." Li Yunze sighed. "Huh?" Why should Ning subconsciously ring Li Yunze''s waist. Li Yunze gently rubbed his chin against the top of he Yining''s hair, and his eyes gradually said slowly: "because I want to be with you well, I always feel that time is a little slow..." Why Ning gently opened his mouth and realized what Li Yunze said in an instant? "Yining," Li Yunze''s eyes darkened, and his voice was a faint blur, "everything will be all right..." He Yining''s body suddenly shook, and his heart seemed to be cracked by Li Yunze''s words. She was caught off guard, which made her a little panic. Feeling he Yining''s emotion, Li Yunze slightly let go of her, stared at her for a while, slowly attached to her and kissed her lips. Yining, I know what you are resisting, but I need you to face it occasionally. The chase from small to large makes you never feel safe with me But God knows, I love you so much that I can put down my guilt for big brother, just because I want to be with you, good... Together! The kiss, with the deep feeling under the lingering, is slowly passed on. Why Ning? Today''s heart is sensitive, not only to the bad, but also to the good. Even if she subconsciously resists, she can''t change the baptism of her heart. With the deepening of the kiss, she had no way to think wildly or completely empty. She could only follow Li Yunze''s mood and gradually indulge in his tenderness Night, very long, but also very short. When the dawn rips the darkness of the East in the morning light, it comes with the chirping of sparrows. The new day is always full of hope under the dawn. "Silly rather, early!" Li Yunze attached himself. When he Ning opened his eyes slightly, he kissed her on the corner of her mouth, "get up and wash. I''ll wait for you downstairs for breakfast, huh?" Why should I rather look at some of the bleary eyes just woke up, and feel guilty at the bottom of my eyes, "I got up late..." Recently, it seems that Li Yunze got up to make breakfast. He has to be busy with research and take charge of Huakang hospital and pharmaceutical factory. She always asks him to get up and make breakfast for her. "Fool!" Li Yunze smiled, "you were tossed by me last night. It''s not normal to get up late?" He Yining blushed and said subconsciously, "it''s you who can exert force." Li Yunze looked at he Yining, and his sight became deep in an instant, but for a moment, it became hot again. Men can''t stand being teased in the morning. They tend to react easily when they are teased. He Yining felt something and her face was a little hotter. "I, I''ll wash..." she hurried up. However, because he exerted too much force, Li Yunze didn''t have time to get out of the way. He heard a "bang" and the two men hit their foreheads together. "Oh!" He Yining covered his head and complained angrily, "why is your head so hard... I''m a little dizzy when I hit it directly!" "Do you blame me for your rashness?" Li Yunze bared his teeth and looked like "little sample, look for death". Why would you rather cover your forehead and look at Li Yunze like this, immediately ''poop poop'' and laugh Li Yunze looked at he Yining''s smile like this, and the corners of his mouth involuntarily overflowed with a smile. He''s silly. He hasn''t laughed like this for a long time. ¡­¡­ The noise of people''s breakfast in the store will cover the noisy content of the downtown. A man was drinking soybean milk. When he heard the woman opposite him finish, he was stunned at first, and then asked definitively, "you mean that he Yining''s hand was broken yesterday?" The woman nodded, raised her hand and motioned for the ring, "use this!" The man''s eyes lit up. "OK," he looked at the woman''s ring. "Your ring cuts people, but it''s poisonous." "Unfortunately, the wound is not big. It''s estimated that it won''t be addictive." The woman dropped her lips. The man looked around and leaned over slightly: "just a little. Now how many people stare at Li Yunze and turn around. We can still have some oil and water by this!" "That dose. It''s estimated that Li Yunze can be controlled with drugs. What''s the use?" The woman was a little angry, "Alas, I didn''t expect to meet him in the elevator yesterday. I had a temporary intention and had no plan." "It''s all right. It''s OK to go back and steal some money." The man raised his eyebrow. "I didn''t know what news he gave before and got a lot of money... Let''s exaggerate later. Maybe we can make a profit!" The woman nodded immediately, "I want to buy a bag, too!" "OK, thanks to you, buy!" ¡­¡­ After breakfast, Li Yunze sent him why he Ning to Shuya before he went to Huakang. He first went to the pathology room, put the blood smear in the analysis instrument, and told the people in the pathology room to decompose the blood for a comprehensive examination before going to a meeting. After a comprehensive analysis, all the results will come out the next day. Li Yunze looked at the blood results report that came out on the first day and there was no problem. He just waited for several items that came out the next day. The sight is slightly deviated and falls on the desk calendar on the desk. Tomorrow, he will circle it With a faint smile in his mouth, Li Yunze took back his sight, took his mobile phone and dialed a group of numbers. "Are you ready?" Li Yunze asked. "It''s all ready. I''ll go to the villa after you go to work tomorrow." Li Yunze answered and explained a few words before hanging up the phone. The line of sight involuntarily looked at the date circled on the desk calendar. Li Yunze''s eyes were slightly deep, thinking about whether tomorrow would be a turning point for Yining and him. Chapter 1571 "The outpatient and surgical arrangements for the next week are basically settled," Chu Qin looked up at everyone. "There were no special circumstances years ago, and it was basically easy." After a pause, Chu Qin looked at he Yining. "Yining, you''re going to take a rest for the small night shift tomorrow night, aren''t you?" He Yining nodded. "Well, see who you can work with." In the morning, Li Yunze sent her over and said she had something to do tomorrow afternoon. Let her take a rest on the small night shift tomorrow "I''ll transfer with Dr. he," said Dr. Liu. "It''s just that my husband is off the day after tomorrow. We''ll take our son to the amusement park." "Well, OK." Chu Qin nodded and said after making remarks on the shift adjustment of he Yining and Dr. Liu, "there''s another thing... Years ago, the hospital had a party, and each department had to give at least two programs." On hearing this, everyone''s heads grew big and began to complain. "I''m so busy that I have to rehearse the program. Can''t the hospital leaders invite several people to perform? Let me have a look at it easily?" "Yes, there are programs every year..." "Dr. he, you can play the piano. Why don''t you give a piano program? We only need to arrange one." He Yining''s piano is general, but it can be fooled in the eyes of people who are not knowledgeable. "Dr. he has never participated in the rehearsal of the party since he came to our department. Don''t encourage him, and he won''t promise..." someone said coldly. He Yining looked at the man with a smile like nothing. He didn''t refute or feel uncomfortable. That person is right. She also participated in the program when she was an intern in Shuya. After she came back from her study, because He Yining didn''t continue to think about it, but nodded to the proposer with a smile, "OK, I''ll give a piano solo this year." In fact, the proposer said casually. He didn''t think why he would rather agree, and immediately clapped his hands. The person who sneered before turned his eyes and glanced at why he was calm. Then he sneered again. At the meeting, Chu Qin asked everyone to break up after arranging classes and programs. Chu Qin waited for he Yining to come out of the meeting room. "I look good recently..." she said with a smile, "sure enough, people need the moisture of the opposite sex." Why Ning''s lips smiled and his face was a little red. "Looking at you for the past two years, I think you''re not the one I know. Why should I be peaceful?" Chu Qin stopped and looked at he Yining. "Look how good it is now. There is less daze. From time to time, he also knows to laugh... Well, he also knows to integrate into everyone." He Yining gently fanned his eyelashes, "before I..." "It''s all right. No one is unhappy in life. It''s good to pass." Chu Qin smiled and patted he Yining on the arm, then turned and went to his office. Why do you rather stand in place and look at Chu Qin''s back with some blank eyes In the past, is it really in the past? He Yining doesn''t know. She''s just a little happy these days... Because Li Yunze will hold her and kiss her! Why did you rather smile at the corners of your mouth and turn a little red again. ¡­¡­ Mo palace. The afternoon sun is not so strong because of the sea breeze. "Jane Mo''s placenta may help, and now I can''t fully guarantee it." Xi Cheng himself was a little annoyed. He participated in the research of silence, but he never thought that the drug would change after encountering progesterone hormone. Even, it is associated with the sequelae of the child under the pregnant body Sequelae or something is the most annoying! Shi Shaoqin looked at Xi Cheng. There was a trace of dignified dissatisfaction on his beautiful face, and a good-looking lip also slightly shrugged. Xi Cheng felt the cold on his face and whispered in a low voice. Then he asked timidly, "Qin Shao, do you think... XK can think of solving the problem?" Shi Shaoqin looked at Xi City again. His eyes fell on star, who was playing with Qingqing on the beach. He said, "there can only be one more hope..." he paused. "Star is still young, and there are not many things in his memory, so there is no problem to forget and accept the new memory." Shi Shaoqin watched Star stumble over the small pile of sand, frowned slightly, and then released, "but when it''s bigger, he doesn''t remember... Life is white..." Xi Cheng suddenly feels a little sad. He has been with star for a long time. No one doesn''t like this child who laughs every day even if his memory is blank. If a person has no memory, life is blank for him after sleeping Xi Cheng''s heart suddenly tightened and looked at Shi Shaoqin. He saw his chin tight and suddenly understood that Qin Shaoqin was distressed at the moment. Shi Shaoqin''s mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. He restrained his thoughts, took it out, looked at the call and picked it up, "huh?" "Qin Shao, things were sent to the patent office yesterday. Today they are going through the procedure. There is no accident. They should be able to go through the international procedure in three or five days." Said the head of Los Angeles. "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered faintly, "withdraw all the people." Shi Shaoqin didn''t say anything after the person in charge of Los Angeles answered and hung up. I saw star suddenly running over with a bucket "Stone, stone..." star shouted excitedly, with a small grin, as if he could compare the sun. Shi Shaoqin squatted down and caught star''s small body running over. He didn''t dislike that he had sand on his body and let him rub it in his arms. "Crab!" Star raised the bucket in front of Shi Shaoqin just like offering treasure. Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes and saw a small crab in the bucket. Because of star''s action, it slid back and forth at the bottom of the bucket "Tired or not?" Shi Shaoqin gently rubbed the sand off star''s cheek. Hearing his question, the little guy immediately rubbed his body and said, "stone, hold!" Shi Shaoqin smiled softly from the corner of his mouth, picked up star and walked to the place he had played before Xi Cheng stood where he was. He just looked at Shi Shaoqin in the sun and star, who smiled happily because of what he said, and sighed gently, "it''s so beautiful. It''s beautiful that I''m about to forget. This is the dark ink palace." ¡­¡­ Another day in Los Angeles, everywhere is full of the taste of happiness. As the due date of Jian Mo is getting closer and closer, Gu Beichen can''t wait to leave from morning to night. Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue''s court is about to open. As the court opening date is coming, the voice of discussion is becoming louder and louder in Los Angeles. Sheng almost covered up the industry''s case against Chu Zixiao, who had just won a lawsuit on technical hanging. "Wait for me to pick you up." Li Yunze kissed he Yining on the forehead, and the smile on the corner of his mouth infected her. He Yining nodded and suddenly looked forward to the arrival of the evening, "I''ll go to work first." Li Yunze answered with a smile and looked at why Ning entered the building and started the car to Huakang. When he arrived at Huakang, Li Yunze looked at the time. The last result was more than half an hour away. He went to the cardiothoracic and pulmonary department first, and then went to the pathology department. "Did the result come out?" Li Yunze asked. The staff of the department didn''t know whose blood sample it was. Seeing Li Yunze asked, they went to get the results, "trace substances were found in the blood..." "Trace matter?" Li Yunze immediately frowned and asked, "have you analyzed any trace substances?" Chapter 1572 "There''s no blood. It''s impossible to analyze what trace matter it is." "However, in terms of the content in the blood, the composition is not high and should not have a direct impact on the body," the analyst said Li Yunze looked at all the reports, his eyes were slightly deep, didn''t say anything, and turned and left the pathology room. No matter what trace matter it is, whether it will cause any harm to the body or not, he must be completely sure to be at ease It seems that we should find a chance to draw more Yining blood at night. Li Yunze sat on the office chair, looked at the next desk calendar, and his eyes were deep. When they met for 6000 days, Yining waited for him for a long time. He basically missed that moment. Today is the 7000 days they have known each other. Whether Yining remembers it or not, but... He remembers it. Li Yunze felt the sweetness of astringency in his heart. Looking at the circled date, his eyes gradually deepened Why doesn''t Yining remember every day he met? However, today''s Yining doesn''t dare to expect. He feels that every day is earned and doesn''t dare to count in detail. He''s afraid that if he counts, the day will be broken. Li Yunze sighed, took back his sight and opened the drawer There was a rectangular jewelry box inside. He took it out and opened it It''s a necklace with a ring. The chain is very thin and connected by a small ''+''. Li Yunze picked up the ring with his fingers and looked at the inside of the ring. He saw a few small English letters engraved inside... Yshq, ysan! "What do you want in your life? Peace in your life!" Li Yunze raised a little smile at the corners of his mouth. That smile spread across Jun''s face and spread at the same time when it reached the bottom of his eyes. Holding the ring with his fingers, Li Yunze gently moved, and whispered with a sigh of relief: "Yining, it is estimated that I made you chase too much when I was a child, so I have to propose to you three times to be successful..." The three rings carry different time and meaning. The first one, under the statue of Hippocrates of the medical school of the University of Los Angeles, with the blessing of the teachers and students of the medical school, I propose to you But because you found out about big brother, you ran away! Second, I thought the proposal ring was lost. I made another one. I don''t want our love to break like this So, we got the certificate, even if there was no wedding, but we became a real couple. Just because of the big brother, we were "separated" in marriage. Li Yunze gently fanned his eyes and looked at the sight of the ring in his hand, but his smile was bigger. The third Yining, we will usher in the wedding. Because, big brother''s affairs will not become a quarrel between you and me, and I will not allow our future to live in boundless guilt. Whether it''s self comfort or for something Put eldest brother''s research into the medical field. This is our two repayment to eldest brother! "What do you want in your life? I want peace..." Li Yunze murmured softly. "Silly Ning, in this life, only when we are around each other can we ask for nothing else and get peace." Thinking, Li Yunze''s hand moved slightly, and when the ring slipped into his palm, he shook it... It''s like holding he Yining''s hand, and he doesn''t want to let go in his life. ¡­¡­ It is difficult to find a seat in the canteen of Shuya hospital at noon. Over the past year, Shuya hospital has improved the quality requirements of the canteen. Patients, their families and medical staff all like to eat here. Song Ninger walks around with the tray in his sight. "Dr. Song, I heard your wife is pregnant?" Someone asked with a smile. Song Tianye nodded. "Shouldn''t your department know earlier than me?" While the questioner smiled, he motioned to the people next to him to move a position to make room for why he would rather stay aside. "I look in good spirits today," Song Tianye glanced at he Yining. "I haven''t seen you empty for a long time, and the corners of my mouth are still smiling." Why Ning Chui Mou smiled, "I don''t know why, just feel very happy today." "Needless to say, it must have something to do with Li Yunze." Song Tianye sighed and said, "ninety nine percent of your emotions are related to him." He Yining looks at Song Tianye and unconsciously smiles again. Song Tianye couldn''t help laughing when he saw why Ning was like this. While eating, he chatted with her. "You mean, today is the 7000 day you and Li Yunze met?" Song Tianye was surprised, then smiled and said, "I''m glad you remember so clearly..." after a pause, he sighed, "Alas, 7000 days... This is nearly 20 years!" Why should Ning''s mouth crack and listen to song Tianye say: "really, a person''s life is only three or four twenty years, and you use one of them to love him. Really, you are so persistent." Who can spend 20 years chasing a person''s footsteps and never stop? Song Tianye thinks that few people can do it. At least, when he knew that Yining and he were completely impossible, he was slowly withdrawing. He Yining smiled again at the corners of his mouth, ate and said, "he told me not to be on duty today, so I''ll be on duty..." As soon as song Tianye heard this, he immediately understood, "it means that Li Yunze remembered it this time!" "He doesn''t know that he is ill at that moment, but he doesn''t know that he is ill at the bottom of his eyes." As soon as song Tianye heard this, he put down his chopsticks, supported his arm on the table, held his fist, put the back of his hand against his chin and looked at he Yining. "Yining, although you''ve been chasing him for nearly 20 years, it''s good that he knows he''s waiting for you now." Why should Ning quietly look at Song Tianye? For a moment, she seemed to be worried, but because it was too fast, she had disappeared before she caught the emotion. Smile and nod, why would you rather eat the rice in your mouth? They all feel sweet. This is something that has not happened in the past three years Song Tianye feels relieved when he sees why he Ning is happy. Although he is married now, Yining is the person he once liked. Now he is not only a colleague, but also a good friend... Seeing her happy, naturally he is the same as a thing. After eating, he Yining went back to the Department. Xu is looking forward to the arrival of the evening because it is too overdue. He Yining is not in the mind of reading. He always looks at the time. He always feels that time seems to be crawling like a snail, and it passes very slowly. The mobile phone suddenly rang. He Yining was shocked by his absent-minded mood. He was stunned for a little two seconds before he took out the mobile phone. It''s a strange number. She didn''t think too much and picked it up. "Hello?" Chapter 1573 "Hello, is he Yining?" There was a man''s voice on the phone. "Yes, you are?" He Yining asked. "Hello, I''m a courier. There''s a courier for you. Please go downstairs and pick it up..." Why was Ning stunned? Without much thought, he answered, hung up the phone, got up and walked out "Dr. Liu, I''ll go downstairs and get an express." Why would you rather explain yourself while walking. Dr. Liu was writing a medical record when he said "Oh". Just when he Yining left the office, Dr. Liu was slightly stunned and said, "don''t express delivery go to the doorman first?" With that, Dr. Liu glanced at the door of the office where there was no human figure. He didn''t think much. He just thought it was an important express that must be handed over to him. He Yining didn''t know who sent the express. He was confused and asked in a small group of three: "Zihan, did you send me the express?" Fang Zihan said, "but I didn''t reply!" "I don''t know. I''ll go downstairs and pick it up now..." he Yining said. "I didn''t buy anything from the Internet and didn''t say to mail anything to me one by one. I wondered if it was sent by Zihan." "At this point, it''s estimated that she''s following the shooting in the army. You''ll know who mailed it first by looking at what it is..." yanmiao said, and the person walked towards the examination room. "I''ll go to check a hospitalized person first." "Well, good." Why should the elevator arrive at the first floor when Ning answered the voice. Out of the building, I saw a small van for express delivery parked there, and the courier was still lying on the door sorting out the express. "Hello, I''ll get the express... Why Ning." The courier glanced at he Yining and looked for the express paper box from the side. "This, please sign..." The courier handed the pen to he Yining. He looked around and made sure that no one was nearby at the moment. The tip of the pen suddenly poked into he Yining''s skin. With the sound of "Oh", why would you rather dilate your pupils in an instant? It''s too late to have any reaction. I just feel that in front of me, I''m black and I''m paralyzed. The courier quickly "threw" he Yining into the express car. When Yu Guang caught a glimpse of someone coming from the corner, he was not in a hurry. He just continued to pretend that nothing had happened, so he pretended to make a phone call. "Yes, you can give me the address. I''ll go to receive the express... Yes, there are activities these two days. The first weight is 20% off." The courier Yu Guang saw that the two nurses subconsciously looked at the express car. When they took back their sight, they calmly closed the door, got in and left ¡­¡­ Li Yunze was having a meeting. Suddenly, his thoughts drifted away. The position of his heart suddenly trembled and he couldn''t help frowning slightly. He didn''t care much and continued the meeting But gradually, he found that he always felt a little flustered. After the meeting, director Li of cardiothoracic and pulmonary Department asked, "Li Shao, are you uncomfortable?" Li Yunze shook his head slightly, "it''s all right." With that, he had got up and walked out and dialed he Yining''s phone. However, it rang until it stopped, and no one answered. Did you enter the operating room?! Li Yunze thought and looked at the time. It was only more than three o''clock in the afternoon. He sent a text message to he Yining: I''ll go to the medicine factory first, and then I''ll wait for you at Shuya. After seeing the successful delivery, Li Yunze thought about why Ning left the operating room. He must reply to him first, so he installed a mobile phone, changed his white coat and went to the pharmaceutical factory. Years ago, we should clear up the drug orders for the coming year, and confirm some drugs that can be distributed to various hospitals. Li Yunze has to decide these things himself. ¡­¡­ The Doctor Liu Ning didn''t come back to write the case until now. After looking at the location of he Yining, Dr. Liu didn''t think much about it. He thought he Yining went to the ward or where?! "Dr. Liu, isn''t Dr. he there?" When a nurse came over and saw that there was no one at he Yining''s station, she looked at Dr. Liu and asked. "I took the express before, but no one came back..." The nurse frowned, "I saw her go down before and thought she was back..." she paused. She took her mobile phone and called he Yining, but no one answered. "Are you busy?" Dr. Liu wondered. "I went to the clinic to see if I had gone there." The nurse said and went to the outpatient building, but he didn''t see anyone. The outpatient said he Yining didn''t come. "Where''s the doctor?" While the nurse whispered, she looked around subconsciously, dialed the phone again, but no one answered, "can''t you disappear out of thin air?" "Didn''t yesterday''s meeting say that we would take a day off today?" Someone reminded, "is Dr. he off duty?" "It''s impossible. The shift handover records are not signed." "That''s strange..." Everyone looked at each other with a confused face, completely at a loss. "What''s the matter?" Chu Qin just came back. "Dr. Liu said that Dr. he didn''t come back after he went to pick up the express, and there was no one we looked for everywhere..." a nurse said, "Dr. he is responsible for the pregnant woman with eight beds. He wants to have a plane tomorrow and the day after tomorrow, ask if it''s OK, and then he hasn''t found anyone." "Did you call?" "Yes, no one answered..." Chu Qin frowned, took his mobile phone, transferred Li Yunze''s phone and dialed it Li Yunze just came out of the pharmaceutical factory and went to Shuya. After Chu rang, he answered the phone "Li Shao, is Yining with you now?" Li Yunze immediately frowned, "I just went to Shuya. Shouldn''t she still be at work?" Asked, his heart suddenly shrank, just like at the meeting at that time. "Is something wrong?" Li Yunze asked hurriedly. Chu Qin said the situation. Li Yunze didn''t even have time to think about it. He hurriedly said, "I''ll be there in a minute..." ¡­¡­ "Well," a painful chant came. Why did Ning tighten his eyebrows and wake up The destination is a dark space. After she has adapted to it for a while, she can roughly see that she should be in a container. Look around, no one, no light comes in She was lying on the ground with her backhand tied and her ankle tied. Why is Ning dizzy? It''s like a shot put rolling back and forth in his head. His sight is empty and solid for a while. She went down to pick up the express, and then Why would you rather close your eyes, lean on the container with your soft body and want to shout, but you don''t have any strength and your whole body is soft. After a long rest, she could knock the container with her body in an attempt to make a little noise. "Is there anyone?" Why did Ning dry and dumb shout, "help..." Chapter 1574 Meng Yi holds he Yining''s mobile phone, the bell rings again, and the caller ID is'' Li Yunze '' He slightly hooked the corner of his mouth, and his eyes became dark and vicious. At the same time, he handed his hand with his mobile phone forward... Let go! With a soft ''pop'', the mobile phone fell into the Los Angeles River. Meng Yi turns around. His indifferent figure is like a ghost, wandering in the shadow of the sun and shrouded in the smell of forest cold. The mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. Meng Yi took it out, glanced at the incoming call, got on the car and answered the phone, "huh?" "He Yining has woken up." Zheng Hao spoke. Meng Yi smiled grimly at the corner of his mouth, "I''ll come right away..." paused, "pay attention, don''t let the Dragon owl find it." "I''ve made a deployment." Zheng Hao spoke. Meng Yi didn''t say anything more. After hanging up, he drove the car to the place where he Yining was closed ¡­¡­ Li Yunze stopped the car and dialed he Yining''s phone again. This time, no one answered, but he couldn''t get through The panic was a little fierce. Li Yunze called Xiao Qiang while walking to the building of Obstetrics and gynecology. "Locate he Yining''s number for me and see where the person is?" "What''s the matter?" Xiao Qiang asked. "Can you stop asking?" Li Yunze forgot to bear his temper because he was in a hurry. Xiao Qiang was stunned. After making a dull "Oh" sound, he began to invade the telecommunications system to locate the location of he Yining''s mobile phone number. Li Yunze hurried to the obstetrics and gynecology department. After getting a general understanding of the matter, he went to find Ma Guangming and adjusted the monitoring. Ma Guangming heard that he Yining was "missing" and didn''t react for a while. When he reacted, he personally accompanied Li Yunze to adjust the monitoring. Not long after lunch, a delivery car did come in. But the parking position of the other party was tricky, which just blocked the monitoring at the door. We can only see that he Yining really came out of the building and went to the place of the express car. "Dr. he should have been taken away by this express car..." Li Yunze looked at Ma Guangming and his face was as black as it should be. "When the express car didn''t leave, two nurses passed..." the monitor fixed the picture. "Zoom in and see who it is?" Ma Guangming said hurriedly. The man in the monitoring room enlarged the picture, refreshed the nurse''s badge and said, "from the hematology department." "Find out these two people..." Li Yunze said. His mobile phone rang. Seeing that it was Xiao Qiang, he quickly picked it up, "what''s the situation?" "The signal can''t be located. It should be turned off." Xiao Qiang said, "however, when you see the last call, it shows that the mobile phone is located on the side of the No. 3 bridge of the Los Angeles River." He swallowed, "I looked at the surveillance near bridge 3 and didn''t see why!" Li Yunze closed his eyes. Although nothing was certain at this moment, he vaguely felt that the matter was related to research However, everything in Mingming Research Institute is going on in an orderly way. How can someone make an idea on Yining?! The panic is getting worse and worse. Li Yunze knows that at this moment, he can''t be confused Ma Guangming has contacted the hematology department and asked the two nurses to come. "Dr. he?" The nurse was surprised and doubted. After subconsciously looking at Li Yunze, she suddenly reacted how to be peaceful. "When we went back to the Department, we saw an express car, but only the courier turned over the express there and didn''t see Dr. he..." Li Yunze didn''t expect to find any useful information in Shuya. He gave Xiao Qiang the screenshot information of the vehicle and called the person in charge of the traffic police team while asking him to check the whereabouts of the car. "Li Shao..." Ma Guangming saw that Li Yunze was leaving and hurried forward, "is there anything I can help?" "Within the scope of the hospital, things that have disappeared can''t be spread out." Li Yunze said without stopping. Ma Guangming answered quickly, "don''t worry, Li Shao. No one here will spread the news of doctor he..." Li Yunze glanced at Ma Guangming and left without saying anything. His biggest worry at the moment is that if the other party knows that the medicine has been developed, what harm will it do to Yining? Thinking of this, Li Yunze''s hands trembled and couldn''t move. Yining, you must be fine. You will be fine! Li Yunze closed his eyes and couldn''t breathe because he was worried and worried. It was like pressing a big stone. He Yining was still locked in the container that was covered with light while he was looking for it anxiously. Her whole body became more and more soft. After hitting the container several times, she had no strength to breathe. At the same time, her head became more dizzy. Look around, why Yining has helplessness and worry at the bottom of his eyes Li Yunze will be very worried when she is taken away suddenly? At this moment, he Yining seems not to worry about himself at all. What he thinks in his mind is whether Li Yunze will be worried if he finds her missing When the sound of "clang" comes, why do you prefer to subconsciously look at the place where the sound comes from The door of the container was suddenly opened, and the dazzling light of the sunset came in, which suddenly stung he Yining''s eyes. She quickly tilted her head and closed her eyes. She only felt that her eyes hurt. Because of the strong light, tears almost didn''t come out. Meng Yi stood at the door of the container, waiting for he Yining to adapt to the vision, and a sneer crossed the corner of his mouth. "Who are you?" He Yining''s voice was weak under the mute. Because of the backlight, she couldn''t see his appearance, but knew he was a man. Meng Yi walks towards he Yining, and the door of the container is closed again. As he walked in, he Yining saw a man with a hat, a plush baseball uniform and a pair of strange glasses squatting in front of her. She wanted to see what the man looked like, but because of the stinging light, she had adapted to the dark line of sight and became more blurred to the darkness. "Are you afraid?" Meng Yi spoke slowly. He Yining frowned. He didn''t know what he wanted to do and didn''t answer. Meng Yi gently pulled down the corner of his mouth, "you don''t look afraid..." paused, "yes, I''m a little worried." He Yining still didn''t speak, but the corners of her mouth unconsciously pricked up, revealing her nervousness. Meng Yi, with night vision goggles, clearly saw all the subtle expressions of he Yining in the dark. "Let me guess..." he smiled, "you must be worried at the moment. What would happen to Li Yunze if he knew you were missing?" Why Ning''s heart suddenly ''cluttered'', and his bound hand was subconsciously clenched. Meng Yi looked at he Yining with deep eyes. While staring at her motionless, he slowly said, "don''t worry... I won''t do anything to you!" He chuckled, "after all, I still need Li Yunze to exchange Li Yunhao''s research... For you!" He Yining could have been calm, because Meng Yi''s words changed his face in an instant Chapter 1575 Looking at he Yining''s expression, Meng Yi''s eyes became cold, "sure enough..." In darkness and subconscious fear, people often forget to hide some emotions. Even a specially trained person can hardly do it when he is unconscious after coma... Besides, he Yining is just an ordinary person! Why Ning suddenly realized something. She bit her teeth and looked at Meng Yi. Although she couldn''t see anything clearly, her eyes burst out anger. She can''t see the man''s expression, but subconsciously, she thinks he can see her clearly! Glasses?! His glasses have night vision Thinking about this, why would you rather toss in your heart, because what you have been cheated is guilt, remorse and fear. Looking at he Yining''s angry expression like a trapped animal, Meng Yi smiled, "you know? How many years have I been waiting for Li Yunhao''s research? Not long after you took Li Yunhao''s research away, I''ve been waiting..." At the thought that he was about to be fooled, Meng Yi was full of hostility, "for so many years, I thought the establishment of al Institute was my hope, but in the end, I found out how angry I was when my hope was about to be dashed?" He Yining''s pupils are constantly expanding because of fear, and gradually, anger surges out. At this moment, I want to kill as treacherous as you Why do you prefer not to speak? Because you bite your teeth too hard, you make a "Yiyi" sound. At this moment, it is particularly penetrating. "I''m really curious. How did Li Yunze get out of the research by hiding it from the world..." Meng Yi didn''t figure it out even now. "I paid attention to all places, whether it''s the research institute or the villa. Why did I still miss it?" Why do you prefer not to speak? Because of anger, your breathing becomes rough and panting, and your chest rises and falls. "However, it doesn''t matter now..." Meng Yi slowly stood up, looked at he Yining from a commanding position and said coldly, "because as long as the research comes out and you are in my hand, Li Yunze will exchange the research!" "You dream!" Why rather gnash his teeth, "Li Yunze won''t give you the research." "Dream?" Meng Yiyou smiled coldly, "he Yining, do I dream? You will soon know..." He Yining''s body began to tremble constantly, not cold, but because of fear and worry. Meng Yi looked at he Yining and suddenly remembered something. He smiled and said slowly, "do you believe in cause and effect?" Paused, "back then, you streamed out Li Yunhao''s research manuscript... Killed him." He deliberately paused, looked at why Yining''s face gradually split into resistance and guilt, his eyes were deep, and continued: "many years later, Li Yunze will take out this research because of you..." He Yining began to gasp. The fear was that she was drowned in the sea, and the pressure from all directions was about to burst her. "You said that the results were the same... What was the significance of Li Yunhao''s death in those years?" Meng Yi raised his eyebrows and asked in a strange voice. "You shut up, you shut up... Ah... You shut up..." he Yining roared with all his strength as if he were crazy. Her whole face was full of fear of resistance. The fluctuation of that emotion was like a pair of hands that tore her closed her heart. The things she had been avoiding and the emotion of avoiding gushed out in an instant. Meng Yi looked at he Yining like this, and his eyes crossed with a cruel cold hiss. Without saying anything, he turned out of the container He Yining is emotionally ill. Recently, even if she is better because of Li Yunze''s love, her subconscious guilt and remorse for Li Yunhao can make her collapse at any time and anywhere, just like the straw that crushed her. When the sound of "bang Dang" came, the container was locked again, completely isolating the sound of he Yining''s collapse. This container is specially treated, and the sound inside and outside is blocked by heavy sound insulation cotton. "How''s it going?" Seeing Meng Yi coming out, Zheng Hao hurried forward and asked. "The research has come out..." "How did Li Yunze do it?" Zheng Hao was surprised. Meng Yi narrowed his eyes slightly. "No matter how he did it, it''s not something we consider now... Now, what I want is research!" "Li Yunze has started to use the Dragon owl, and the people are looking for why to be better..." Zheng Hao said. Meng Yi sneered, looked ahead and said slowly, "now, it''s time to test... Why Ning has multiple weight in Li Yunze''s heart." Zheng Hao frowned. "What I''m worried about now is whether the medicine has been sent to the Patent Office..." he looked at Meng Yi. "If they can find a way to hide the research, does that mean that the so-called inspection of various places in fangjishan last week was just to cover up the matter of going to the patent office?" "Not impossible..." "If this is true, isn''t it a patent? Even if we want something, we can''t make big moves?" Meng Yi frowned and said coldly, "even if you take a special channel, you can go home. I''m afraid the international formalities are not so fast." "Then..." Meng Yi ignored Zheng Hao, but took out his mobile phone and dialed Li Yunze. ¡­¡­ "The car is a licensed car. Everything should be premeditated." Xiao Yu leaned against the table, looked at Li Yunze and said, "now there are many people and forces staring at the research in Los Angeles. Although it is basically certain that he Yining was kidnapped, it is not easy to determine who is on the specific side for a time." Li Yunze''s eyebrows have tightened together, "the other party will contact me!" "If the purpose is research, nature!" Xiao Yu looked at the time. "I''ll take someone to find it first." Li Yunze nodded. After Xiao Yu left, he asked Xiao Qiang to check the road condition monitoring again, and the man also left devil "s kiss. Just sitting in the car, Li Yunze''s mobile phone rang. Hidden number call! The eyes were deep, and Li Yunze was basically sure that the other party was the one who took he Yining away. Taking a deep breath, Li Yunze answered the phone and put it in his ear, "Li Yunze, who is it?" "Li Shao is so smart. I think I must have guessed the purpose of my call." The voice of the other party is processed by voice control, which is mechanically disgusting. "Say, conditions!" Li Yunze squared his teeth and squeezed out a few words. "I just like talking to smart people... It''s always easy." Meng Yi said coldly, "first of all, I don''t want many people to know about this matter, such as Gu Beichen..." Li Yunze didn''t speak. Meng Yi continued to say, "of course, the Dragon owl''s people are checking. I won''t let you remove..." Li Yunze naturally doesn''t think the other party is kind. The other party just knows that he has suddenly removed boss long. Xiao Yu and they will be confused and follow him immediately. "Of course, you can also play a little mind." Meng Yi laughed. After the sound processing, the laughter was like a ghost, "I heard... Why Yining has an emotional illness. You said, you have to do something I don''t like. Will I let your efforts these days be in vain?" Li Yunze suddenly changed his face Chapter 1576 The other party knows that Yining has emotional illness?! Such cognition made Li Yunze''s uncontrollable heart tremble How? Not many people know that Yining has emotional illness. How can the other party know that Yining has emotional illness? The questions were brushed in my mind again and again. Finally, they became the appearance of he Yining''s collapse due to the problem of emotional illness. "Oh, it seems that Jianmo is going to have a baby..." Meng Yi chuckled. "Alas, although threatening people with women is a bit disgraceful, what can I do? No matter he Yining or Jianmo, I''d like to know what will happen to any of them except for things?" Li Yunze''s hand holding the mobile phone unconsciously clenched up, gnashing his teeth and squeezing out the gap between his teeth word by word, "I''ll do as you say, don''t hurt her!" "You''re obedient, of course, I won''t hurt her..." Meng Yi''s voice made people feel hairy gently after being processed. "Li Yunze, I know your four little boys in Los Angeles are in the sphere of influence in Los Angeles, and I warn you for the last time. If you have to take risks, then I will make you regret." Li Yunze''s hand gripping the mobile phone was getting tighter and tighter, and the sound of "Yiyi" was full of strange anger. "What do you want?" Li Yunze gnashed his teeth. Meng Yi looked at the workers working in front of him. With a cold smile on his mouth, he slowly said, "what do I want, you don''t know?" Li Yunze certainly knows that the only thing that can make these people interested now is the research of big brother. However, he was confident that through the protection from beginning to end, those people could not know that the research had come out, or even sent it to the patent office. He can''t mess! "How do I know what you want when you tie my woman away?" Li Yunze asked angrily. Meng Yi snorted coldly, "at this moment, are you still dead?" After a pause, he said maliciously from the bottom of his eyes, "it''s a pity that your woman is not as smart as you." Li Yunze only felt that his heart contracted suddenly, not because of anything else, but worried about why he Ning would not be frightened. "Li Yunze, why do you want to be better... Just exchange research for others!" Meng Yi said directly, "also, withdraw all the materials that have been sent to the patent office." "Impossible!" Li Yunze said coldly. "Oh, it''s impossible..." Meng Yi smiled. "I''ll give you a day. If I can''t see the research and the materials you submitted at this time tomorrow..." he paused deliberately, "don''t worry, I won''t kill he Yining. I''ll just let her... Live better than die." "How dare you?" Li Yunze stared. "I dare!" Meng Yi didn''t care about Li Yunze''s threat at all. "One day, remember, you only have one day to consider!" The words fell. Without giving Li Yunze another chance to speak, Meng Yi had already hung up the phone. Li Yunze opened the door, got off and returned to the bar. "A number without caller ID, can you find the location according to the line?" "The other party contacted you?" Xiao Qiang''s subconscious rhetorical question. Li Yunze didn''t dare to gamble. He just said vaguely: "no one spoke after the phone was connected. I doubt whether it will be the other party!" "Let me see if I can find the path from your mobile phone..." Xiao Qiang took Li Yunze''s mobile phone and planned to find some traces from the electronic board. "The other party dialed by Internet phone," Xiao Qiang said with a wrung eyebrow. "There was no intentional cover up of the path, but the IP was displayed in Luxembourg... Obviously, the other party was intentional." In fact, Li Yunze knew very well that the other party would never give him a chance to find it. It''s just that he has a little hope. Li Yunze turned and left without saying anything. Xiao Qiang hurriedly asked, "Li Shao?" "You continue to look at the road conditions and find the express car..." Li Yunze kept walking out of the bar and got into the car. There was a bang and his fist hit the steering wheel. Gritting his teeth, Li Yunze''s eyes became scarlet and looked at the line of sight ahead, filled with anger under self reproach. He should be more careful. He shouldn''t feel safe Yining, you can''t do anything, you can''t! Li Yunze painfully closed his eyes. Now he is not afraid of anything. He is afraid that because of this matter, he would rather put all the responsibilities on her and completely fall into a comprehensive emotional disease Li Yunze''s body trembled because of his forbearance. He was powerless to fear the unprecedented torrent of remorse. The other party obviously knew him well and cut off his way back. Even if Xiao Qiang and Xiao Yu can''t find anyone for a while Li Yunze opened his eyes, and his fundus was red with anger. Now Yining is in the other party''s hand. The other party has grasped his life gate, and he dare not act rashly. He knew too well that if Yining was in an emotional illness and learned that he would become the key to big brother''s medicine, he would never be able to regret it again. ¡­¡­ Why ningse shrinks his body and his mind is empty, but the position of his heart shrinks dramatically. The cold air from all around wrapped her. She forgot the cold, but her body was shaking... It seemed that she didn''t know whether it was cold, fear, or both. Li Yunze, don''t... don''t! He Yining finally had only this sentence in his mind. She dared not think about the consequences if Li Yunze was threatened and took the research. She has killed Yunhao''s brother. She can''t let Li Yunze have an accident, let alone hurt more people No, no! He Yining''s body trembled more and more, and his face became embarrassed. "Why is there something wrong with Ning?" Zheng Hao looked at the monitor and said. Meng Yi came over and looked at he Yining, who was shivering and trembling, and slightly twisted his eyebrows. It''s still very cold at night, but the container is treated. The sound insulation is very good. At the same time, the heat insulation and cold insulation effect are also good. It''s absolutely impossible to be so cold "That''s right." Meng Yi suddenly remembered, "last night someone said he Yining was addicted..." he paused, "you have not had time to confirm. Today, you temporarily said you want to bring he Yining." "The dose is not estimated to be heavy." Meng Yi said, "but it''s good... Li Yunze is not obedient when he is slightly poisoned and emotionally ill. As long as he uses it properly?" "Li Yunhao even committed suicide in order to protect research. Do you think Li Yunze could really ignore Li Yunhao''s efforts for a woman?" Zheng Hao is worried. Meng Yi didn''t speak. After a while, his eyes fell on he Yining in the monitor and slowly opened his mouth and said, "no matter how, this time is also a desperate gamble. Otherwise, all the deployment and patience over the years will be paid in vain." Zheng Hao sighed deeply, looked at he Yining and said, "I hope she really has a transcendent position in Li Yunze''s heart." Meng Yi narrowed his eyes slightly and looked at he Yining. His eyes were full of vicious light, "then you can only see whose heart is... Cruel!" Chapter 1577 Li Yunze didn''t sleep all night. The villa has been carefully decorated and filled with a romantic atmosphere. Flowers, cakes, red wine Also, a ring necklace that will "propose" three times. Obviously everything was fine, but there was an accident at the last minute. Li Yunze hung his head powerlessly, holding his forehead in his hands, and his face was completely afraid of fatigue. The night is very long because of waiting and anxiety. At this moment, Li Yunze hoped that time could pass slowly, even a little. But time is always like this. When you ask for it, you won''t slow down for you. Dawn always comes when he should come and comes as scheduled. The ''buzzing'' of the mobile phone vibrated. Li Yunze picked up the mobile phone almost at the moment of vibration. Seeing that it was Xiao Yu, he hurriedly picked it up, "how about it?" "The other party is a master." Xiao Yu wrung her eyebrows and said, "put a lot of smoke bombs, Xiaoqiang and I have been busy all night..." paused, "has the other party contacted you?" The corners of Li Yunze''s mouth moved back and forth. Thinking of the warning in yesterday''s phone call, Li Yunze dared not gamble on why he Yining. He could only say: "no!" "The other party seems to want to kill your patience..." Xiao Yu is a little dignified. "The problem now is, if the other party wants that research, why Yining will become your weakness." After a pause, he and Xiao Qiang looked at each other and asked, "Li Shao, if... I mean, if the other party asked you to exchange research, what would you do?" Li Yunze''s eyes were so sore that he said without thinking, "I just want her!" Such an answer is not surprising to Xiao Yu. He thought it was all right to say that people are grouped together. Whether it''s brother Xiao or Chen Shao, or now Li Shao, he has a persistent attachment to his feelings. Either don''t love, love, that''s all. "Li Shao, have you ever thought about the consequences if the research falls into the hands of those people?" "What else can I do now?" Li Yunze pulled down the corners of his mouth with derision, and his face was completely powerless after waiting for one night. "Do I want to ignore Yining because of the consequences?" In Li Yunze''s last voice, there was obviously a deep pain about to collapse He hoped that Xiao Yu and them could find Yining within the time given by the other party. Even if they knew clearly that the other party had been staring at him for so long, they would not be so easy to find. Xiao Yu was silent. "Let''s continue to look. If there''s any news over there, we''ll talk about it according to the situation." "Yes." Li Yunze hung up the phone after powerlessly answering the voice, slowly lying on the sofa, leaning his head, and his sour vision fell outside. "Li Yunze, Li Yunze..." Li Yunze suddenly sat up and looked at he Yining standing there with one hand behind him and the other shaking with him in the yard. "Yining?!" Li Yunze suddenly stood up and hurried over. With a bang, Li Yunze''s forehead hit the glass. The pain made him wake up for a moment. At the same time, he Yining disappeared. Li Yunze stood where he was standing, ignoring the pain on his forehead. He just looked at the place where he Yining stood before. Gradually, a self mocking smile overflowed from the corners of his mouth. He has hallucinations Yining, I have been separated from you for 20 hours. Although we have been strangers to each other for nearly three years, I know that you are never far away from me. I am always at ease. Li Yunze tightened his eyebrows and put his hands on the glass. He just felt weak all over his body. Everything is not as important as you. I can''t lose you... No! Li Yunze kept rolling his Adam''s apple because he endured grief, but he couldn''t suppress his inner remorse. ¡­¡­ He Yining kept repeating waking up and falling asleep. However, she repeated it for more than ten hours and didn''t know how many times. "Well..." Why is Ning singing with a splitting headache? His throat is dry and has begun to smoke, and his lips are dry and white. The slight drug addiction passed last night, but because there was no food and water, the whole body was still weak and numb. He Yining drooped his eyelids powerlessly, and his sight floated gently in the dark. He didn''t know how long it had passed. The door of the container was opened and light came in, but there was no sunshine. Why rather gently moved his eyes and thought that there was a sunset when he opened the door before. At the moment, he couldn''t see the sun. It was estimated that it was the next morning. "Drink water." Zheng Hao pulled he Yining up and handed the water to her. He Yining didn''t move, just looked at the visitor, and his sight was a little unreal. "If you don''t want to drink because of Yunze, you can drink it." Zheng Hao said and sent the water forward. Why Ning opened his mouth mechanically and drank two mouthfuls. The moist breath moistened the dry throat and made it more comfortable. "You... Who are you... Exactly?" He Yining asked feebly. Zheng Hao took out a piece of bread, tore open the package and handed it to he Yining. "It doesn''t matter who, but our purpose is very simple." He Yining didn''t eat, but stared at Zheng Hao. The other party seemed not afraid to be seen by her this time. The door of the container was not closed after he came in. "You won''t get what you want..." he Yining panted. "No!" Zheng Hao smiled. "You will soon know whether you will get what you want." He paused, "Oh, I forgot to tell you. We gave Li Yunze a day. By tonight, if he didn''t withdraw his application in the patent office and come over with research, you would be very painful." "He won''t do what you want." Why would you rather gnash your teeth. Zheng Hao looked at he Yining, who seemed to grasp the last straw and shrugged, "didn''t you say that, you''ll know soon." Paused, "Oh, you must be thinking that Li Yunze will think that research is more important than you, right?" He Yining didn''t speak, but looked at Zheng Hao angrily. "He Yining, we''ve been paying close attention to you and Li Yunze for a long time..." Zheng Hao suddenly came. "Otherwise, I''ll test you later. How important are you in Li Yunze''s heart, huh?" Why Ning suddenly felt the strange cold breath from Zheng Hao, "you, what do you want to do?" Zheng Hao looked at he Yining, whose body began to tremble again, and a smile crossed his eyes. The smile was so cruel that his blood was excited. When they get to Los Angeles, they have time to study And this time must be created by Ning and Li Yunze! Chapter 1578 As time went by, Xiao Yu didn''t break through because of each other''s cunning and smoke bombs. Li Yunze''s heart is getting deeper and deeper. "Li Shao, why not..." Xiao Qiang endured and asked, "why don''t you talk to Chen Shao?" "No!" Li Yunze rubbed his swollen eyebrows, looked at Xiao Qiang''s puzzled eyes and said powerlessly, "Jian Mo is about to be born. If something happens because of Beichen''s departure, what should I do?" Xiao Qiang was silent. They all know how important this child is to Gu Beichen and Jian mo. if something really happens before they are born, the consequences here are unimaginable. "But..." Xiao Qiang hesitated. "What the other party wants is research," Li Yunze said with a light and heavy eyes. "I think Yining should be safe before I get the research." "That''s true." Xiao Yu said with his arms around his chest, "it''s just why he would rather have an emotional disease. If he is suppressed by the other party for too long, I''m afraid it''s also a problem." Li Yunze looked at the time. It was almost noon. Getting up, he turned and left the bar without saying anything. Talents get on the car, the mobile phone rings, and the number is still hidden. "Can''t you find he Yining and feel very anxious?" The mechanical voice came, with a strange smell, "Li Yunze, I won''t give you some time to let you understand... What you do is futile, and you won''t give up." Li Yunze was silent, "how''s Yining?" "What do you think?" Meng Yi didn''t answer, "Li Yunze, you still have less than eight hours..." he smiled, "you can continue to place your hope on others." Now, attack the heart. Xiaoze and Xiaojiang are the only people who can stay in Luocheng for the time being. Xiaoze and Xiaojiang are the only ones who can stay in Luocheng for the time being. There are only two people. It''s weaker However, Meng Yi can delay for two or three days at most. During this period, he must get the research and leave enough time for himself to leave Los Angeles Li Yunze gradually clenched his hand holding the mobile phone. His eyes were bloodshot and he clenched his teeth and said, "I want to listen to Yining''s voice." Meng Yi sneered, "Li Yunze, you have no right to talk to me about terms." "How can I know if Yining is good at the moment? When I''m not sure if Yining is really in your hand, why should you let me exchange research for it?" Li Yunze''s voice forbeared to the limit. Meng Yi smiled again. "You can choose not to believe it, just... Don''t regret it." After his words, he didn''t give Li Yunze a chance to speak and had already hung up the phone. The hanging sound of "Dudu Dudu" came with an angry frequency. Li Yunze clenched his teeth and made a strange sound of "Yiyi". "Er..." After roaring, Li Yunze closed his eyes and tried to calm himself down. ¡­¡­ Meng Yi picked up the fruit knife and began to peel the apple while looking at the condition of he Yining in the monitoring. Cut half, he suddenly thought of something, put down the fruit knife and called Zheng haodai, "Li Yunze doesn''t have time now, and Jin shaosi is not in Los Angeles. This is an opportunity to find a way to get Qu Weiwei out." "Now?" Zheng Hao frowned, "do you have to take care of her at this time?" "Qu Weiwei has arrived at the time of release, but there is no movement. It is obvious that Li Yunze has explained in advance." Meng Yi said calmly, "trust some relationship to get people out. Li Yunze just doesn''t care about the things over there." "But now Guan Qu Weiwei, will there be complications?" Zheng Hao asked anxiously. Meng Yi was silent. "We must have enough time to go. Qu Weiwei came out. It is estimated that it can delay some time." Zheng Hao thought about it and thought it made sense. Qu Weiwei hates why Ning and Li Yunze so much. She is locked up in prison and taken special care of. When she comes out, she will spread all her resentment on them In that way, it can really delay some time so that they can leave Los Angeles more safely. "OK, I''ll do it." Zheng Hao answered. ¡­¡­ The person in charge of Mo palace Los Angeles looked at the examination files of Jian Mo obtained from the obstetrics and Gynecology Department of Huakang hospital, looked at the expected delivery time drawn on the calendar, and called someone to come "Li Yunze, the people over there have withdrawn back?" "After the things were sent to the patent office, our people withdrew." The person in charge of Los Angeles nodded, "Jane Mo''s due date is coming. Put everyone near Huakang hospital and Jane Mo and keep an eye on them." After a pause, he looked at the time of the due date, "the due date is just a few days, and it is possible to have a baby at any time... Qinshao is waiting for the placenta of Jane mo." "OK, I''ll arrange everyone later..." The person in charge of Los Angeles nodded and motioned the man to do it. Although Jian Mo''s placenta may not help star, Shi Shaoqin doesn''t want to let go as long as there is a little hope. Looking at star who just woke up, his eyes were full of blankness about the world. His heart could not help shrinking. "Your name is star, I''m star''s stone..." Shi Shaoqin repeated every time star woke up, not once impatient, but full of tenderness. Star is still young. Even if he has no memory, he will instinctively rely on people close to him subconsciously. "Stone..." star shouted softly. He put his small arm around Shi Shaoqin and rubbed his small face in his neck. Shi Shaoqin took the little guy to the restaurant after washing star. Shi Jue Chi was already having dinner there. When he saw them coming, he said to star like Shi Shaoqin, "good morning, star. I''m uncle Chi." "Uncle Chi..." star shouted and couldn''t get off Shi Shaoqin until the servant brought fresh shrimp porridge. After watching Star eat for a while, Shi juechi looked back at Shi Shaoqin, "I heard you arranged someone to protect Li Yunze''s research?" "It has been removed." Shi Shaoqin spoke indifferently. "You have broken the rules of the dark world." Shi juechi subconsciously looked at star. Shi Shaoqin looked at Shi Jue Chi indifferently. "Mo palace is not interested in that research. I think those people will be more willing to see it." "Why not help you directly?" Shi Jue Chi is curious. Shi Shaoqin didn''t answer. First, he wiped star''s little hand, which was covered with porridge, and then said indifferently, "everything is already going through the procedure. What else can happen?" Shi juechi shrugged and thought it was true. However, at the moment, they don''t know, because Mo palace removed people from the dark, so that they missed it. Li Yunze went to the patent office to get back the patent application files, which will lead to a more painful ending Chapter 1579 "Li Yunze, do you know what the consequences are?" Li Fang, the director of the patent office, said, "you want to withdraw the patent office this time. Do you really want Li Fang to withdraw the patent office?" Li Yunze didn''t explain anything, but said indifferently: "I won''t apply for this patent..." his eyes were as deep as a vortex, because he was anxious and didn''t rest, and his body was full of hostility. Because Li Yunze didn''t explain anything, the director of the patent office was so popular. "Li Yunze, do you know? You left lvtong and didn''t say it. Because of the special situation, political commissar Fang issued special documents and went through abnormal procedures. Now you say you don''t apply on the way. How do you ask me to explain to the international patent office?" Li Yunze didn''t speak, but his eyes seemed to be frozen. "You have to give me a reason anyway?" The director of the Patent Office looked at Li Yunze with a strange smell. "There''s no reason," Li Yunze said indifferently and slowly, "I don''t want to apply." Paused, "the director can think that there is a problem with the drug and can''t continue to apply." "What is a drug problem?" The director of the Patent Office sneered and walked back and forth in the office with his waist akimbo. "Li Yunze, is something wrong?" "No." "..." the director of the Patent Office looked at Li Yunze''s uncontrollable lips and wanted to say something, but he couldn''t say anything because he was angry. "Political commissar Fang, I will naturally explain," Li Yunze''s voice is always calm, his eyes look at the director of the patent office, and there is not much change from beginning to end. "Today, I have to withdraw my patent application." The director of the patent office didn''t control his emotions after all. He only heard a "bang" in the office, The roar came: "Li Yunze, you think the Li family''s position in the domestic medical field can let you do whatever you want? Well, I''ll leave it here for you today. As long as I''m still the director of the Patent Office for a day, you don''t want to have a chance to apply for a patent in the future!" People outside listened to the angry voice, looked at each other one after another, and swallowed one by one involuntarily. In fact, many people don''t know Li Yunze''s patent application. But now everyone knows because of the roar of the director of the Patent Office "What''s going on?" "I don''t know..." "When did the Li family apply for the patent? Why didn''t we go through the procedure?" "Probably from lvtong?" "Even if it''s lvtong, it''s impossible? No one has handled it..." Everyone shrugged and looked at a loss. Thinking about what happened, the door of the office of the director of the patent office was suddenly opened, and Li Yunze came out with a file bag with a special paint seal for the patent office in his hand. As soon as they saw the shape of the lacquer seal, they looked at each other in amazement and had only one thought. It''s an international patent application?! The most important thing is that they are all painted and sealed. At first glance, the domestic procedures have been completed, and we should be ready to submit them to the International Patent Office Just when everyone was stunned, someone looked around, quietly took out his mobile phone, edited a text message and sent it out: Li Yunze came, took something and just left. Soon, a text message came back: are you sure about the authenticity? The man''s warning light floated around. Seeing that everyone''s attention was talking about Li Yunze''s patent, he replied: sure! ¡­¡­ Zheng Hao looked at the reply message and his blood suddenly began to boil. Remove the patent. Now, they are waiting for Li Yunze to bring the research materials Zheng haoxu was too excited. Looking at he Yining who was weak, the whole human cell became active. "He Yining, do you know what the current progress is?" Zheng Hao squatted down and looked at he Yining, whose body began to shrink again. He Yining''s eyelids drooped weakly, and his breath was weak and powerful. She just felt cold, as if her thoughts were also very lax. Zheng Hao looked at he Yining and knew that the weak drug addiction in her body began to attack, "I suddenly look forward to your performance when Li Yunze comes..." Why Ning''s breath began to be short. She wanted to say something, but she didn''t have strength all over. Just in her eyes, she burst out guilt and anger that she couldn''t hide. "Oh, by the way, Qu Weiwei is coming out..." Zheng Hao smiled. "You must not know what Li Yunze has done to Qu Weiwei in the past three years? I think you will be very ''happy'' after she comes out!" Why Ning''s body is shaking more and more. It''s not because of Qu Weiwei, but vaguely resisting something ¡­¡­ After Li Yunze took something, he called Xiao Yu, "have you found Yining?" He seemed to have the last glimmer of hope. Xiao Yu was silent and his voice was dignified. "The other party obviously knows our existence and has explored our means... It can be found, but time is a problem." Li Yunze glanced at the patent application materials withdrawn from the co pilot and closed his eyes. Feeling the hostility of Li Yunze, Xiao Yu, who has always been indifferent, also wrung his eyebrows. "Now, what we need to do is delay time..." paused, and his eyes were slightly deep. "Li Shao, I don''t care how the other party threatens you. As long as you can delay time, Xiaoqiang and I will remove the ''obstacles'' that confuse our sight, and the other party will naturally surface." Procrastinate... He can do it, but he dare not gamble with Yining. Yining is emotionally ill. As long as there is a little sign that makes her fall into self blame again, he can''t imagine the consequences! Li Yunze rubbed the center of his eyebrows wearily. Before he spoke, another prompt sound came. He put down his cell phone and saw that it was from Huakang pathology room. After talking to Xiao Yu, he transferred the phone. "Li Shao, I analyzed the trace matter with the residual blood in the storage vessel." "Results?" I don''t know why, Xu is because he Yining has an accident. Li Yunze is almost sure that there is something wrong with her wound at this moment. "There are traces of methamphetamine in the blood." As soon as Li Yunze listened, his body, which had been leaning against the car seat, immediately sat straight, "what are you talking about?" "There is methamphetamine in the blood." The person in the pathology room said it again seriously. Li Yunze''s breath suddenly became heavy, and his hand was clenched involuntarily because of anger. Methamphetamine... Commonly known as "methamphetamine"! Li Yunze opened his mouth and gasped. The sudden pressure on his heart suffocated him. Emotional illness and drug addiction Li Yunze''s mind suddenly flashed the scene of Li Yunhao''s suicide, and the whole nerve was full of bloody pictures. No, no Yining, you must be all right, you must not be all right! Chapter 1580 Li Yunze''s eyes turned red in an instant, and the fundus of his eyes was stung, shrouded in a layer of wet fog "Li Shao..." the people in the pathology room felt Li Yunze''s dysmenorrhea and twisted their eyebrows and made a sound. Li Yunze didn''t answer, just hung up his phone. "Ah --" Li Yunze''s eyes were filled with tears of fear and worry. He roared in the car and was full of regret under self remorse! Why? Why did he put Yining in such a state Why? "Ah! Ah! Ah..." Li Yunze kept beating the steering wheel with his fist. Because of the great force, the whole body shook. Passers by looked sideways and heard the roar and "bang bang bang" sound like a trapped animal. A look of horror appeared on their faces and they left one after another. The mobile phone vibrated again. Li Yunze''s eyes were red and he picked it up without looking at it "Yunze, what''s the situation now?" On the phone, Li Jiyuan said eagerly, "why did you withdraw the patent application?" Li Yunze''s eyes were red, and his angina pectoris was severe at the moment. "Dad..." Li Yunze gritted his teeth, "I''m sorry!" Li Jiyuan''s eyebrows tightened more. "Is something wrong?" Li Yunze painfully closed his eyes. When he opened them, he swallowed hard and said, "Dad, you said that no matter what I do, you will support me, right?" Li Jiyuan frowned and didn''t know what had happened. However, he believed in this son. After all, after his eldest son left, he shouldered everything and knew what he wanted to do "Yunze, as long as you know what you''re doing." Li Jiyuan said after being silent. Li Yunze tilted his head, and his face was full of ferocity under pain. How important is Yining? He knew at this moment that as long as he thought that she might be hurt, his heart would forget to beat! "Thank you, Dad!" Li Yunze gritted his teeth and hung up. He can''t do anything now. He has to wait and wait for the other party to contact him He knew that he should not compromise, even let Beichen know and let Xiao Jing participate... But he didn''t dare, didn''t dare to gamble with Yining! I dare not let Jane Mo be hurt again Yining, you''ll be fine... Right?! It will be all right ¡­¡­ Jane Mo took her mobile phone, frowning and meditating for a while. The whole person looked tangled. "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen came down from the study after the meeting and saw Jane Mo''s face distressed. Jian Mo''s eyes moved with Gu Beichen. Finally, when he sat down beside her, he was slightly biased and lay lazily on his legs. Because Jane Mo is about to reach the due date, Gu Beichen can now be said to be inseparable from her side. The emperor''s business was left to Xiao Jing. Only the occasional meeting he had to preside over would be held through video "I''m thinking about Zixiao and Zhang Nian..." Jane Mo wrung her eyebrows. "The thing about Zhang Jia is that Zixiao did too much, but Zhang Nian shouldn''t bear all the mistakes and miss Zixiao." Gu Beichen sighed, "Mo''er, you''re about to have a baby. Can''t you stop thinking so much?" "I don''t want to... But I can''t help thinking." Jane Mo looked helpless. "I was thinking, why don''t you make an appointment to have dinner with Zixiao and Zhang Nian tomorrow night?" "You always worry about your first love. Don''t you think you should consider my feelings?" Gu Beichen looked jealous. Jane Mo sat up, subconsciously stroked her belly, looked at Gu Beichen seriously and said, "then I have become friends with your first love. What should I say?" "...." Gu Beichen took a breath from the corner of his mouth and was speechless. He sighed and changed the subject. "I''ll make you a glass of juice." "At first glance, it is to avoid the problem!" J and Jian Jie came down from upstairs at the right time, "also, only state officials are allowed to set fire and people are not allowed to light lights..." Chien Chieh nodded in earnest, "yes!" Jian Mo looked back at the two people, one big and one small, and nodded his head. At the same time, he was a little "disliked" Gu Beichen. "Mommy, when will you be back?" Jane Jie sat down and asked. Jane was stunned. "I guess..." she pulled the corners of her mouth, "I don''t know." Now, it''s Jianjie''s turn to dislike. "I''ll call Yining and ask..." Jane Mo said and dialed he Yining. "Sorry, your phone has been turned off..." "Shutdown?!" Jane Mo twisted her eyebrows and dialed Li Yunze again. No one answered. She couldn''t help whispering, "did both of them enter the operating room?" Anyway, Jane said, "I should put down my mobile phone soon, so I don''t want to come back!" "Oh..." Jane Jie answered a little bitterly. ¡­¡­ After venting for a while, Li Yunze gradually recovered his calm. He was just a pair of scarlet eyes with moisture and knew how powerful it was. Glancing at the missed call on his mobile phone, Li Yunze didn''t call back. Jane Mo is very smart and pregnant people are also very sensitive. He can''t talk to her calmly at the moment. If she guesses something wrong with him, Beichen can find something Now, in the case of Yining suffering from methamphetamine and emotional illness, what else can he do? He dare not have the slightest chance! Li Yunze never knew that time was so painful. Every second of beating was a needle in his heart. The sun gradually moved to the west, and Li Yunze began to be anxious uncontrollably as he waited. The other party seemed to be playing psychological warfare and killing Li Yunze''s will. At the same time, he had to wait 24 hours to contact him. The mobile phone suddenly rang. Almost instantly, Li Yunze answered the phone, "hello?" Meng Yi listens to Li Yunze''s anxious voice and slowly opens his mouth with a smile: "take something and go to the new building on the North Viaduct first." The words fell, and Li Yunze was not given a chance to speak. He had already hung up the phone. Li Yunze bit his teeth, took a Bluetooth headset and started the car to drive towards the North elevated When the talent arrived, the phone rang again. "There is a black car parked on the left side of the second building. Change to Xinyuan purified water plant." After the explanation, Meng Yi hung up again. Li Yunze started from the first phone and kept changing places, vehicles and even mobile phones with analog signals under the "guidance" of Meng Yi. From the sunshine moving west to the bright lights at night, and then to the noon of the next day, Li Yunze lost almost all his patience. Without rest for more than 40 hours, and under the tension and high concern, Li Yunze, who has always been bright and beautiful, is now exhausted, stubble has grown, and the whole person looks a little sloppy. Li Yunze''s cell phone, which can only be connected by one line, rang after he arrived at another place. He picked it up and said gnashing his teeth: "where are you?" Chapter 1581 Li Yunze knows that the other party keeps asking him to change cars and then go around the place in order to confuse Xiao Yu''s sight Yining has been in each other''s hands for 48 hours. Li Yunze can''t imagine what Yining has become in these two days Meng Yi looked at the location map on the computer, and a sneer crossed the corner of his mouth. However, his eyes were completely excited because he was playing a "game". The man of dragon owl is not simple. If he is not careful, how can he do it?! "The five o''clock Road," Meng Yi said slowly, "turn left after two intersections, and turn right after another intersection..." Li Yunze listened to Meng Yi''s instructions with a high degree of concentration. When the other party hung up, he said "hit", angrily threw his mobile phone out, bounced on the windshield, fell on the workbench and slipped on the floor. Start the car and Li Yunze walks according to Meng Yi''s instructions Every time he gives a tricky and free line, I''m afraid I don''t know how many wronged roads to take if he doesn''t have a good memory! This is not the most important thing. Now Li Yunze''s only fear is that if he delays one more second for his reason, he will suffer one more second. ¡­¡­ "Well" came, why would rather be thrown to the ground. She looked around powerlessly. Her nose was full of bad smell, which made people want to vomit. Why do you prefer to breathe heavily and breathe heavily. Meng Yi slowly squats down in front of he Yining with a mask. Looking at her embarrassed appearance, the smile at the corners of her mouth gradually deepens. Under the trend of fear, the poison on he Yining began to be arrogant in his blood Although the dose is very small, it is enough to make a person who has never been exposed to the drug uncomfortable. "Li Yunze is coming soon. Why Yining, are you happy?" Meng Yi said with a smile, "you must be looking forward to seeing him?" He Yining didn''t speak, but gritted his teeth and stared at Meng Yi. She remembered the voice. The man was the one who cheated her in the container that day! "Tut Tut, these angry little eyes..." Meng Yi shook his head gently, with a strange smell in his voice, "I heard that you think Li Yunze doesn''t think you are important to him?" He Yining''s eyes were uncontrollably filled with fear under resistance. She clenched her teeth tightly and didn''t speak, but stared at Meng Yi. "Well, since my people say they want to confirm it for you, I''ll kindly help you..." Meng Yi said, ''ha ha'' and smiled. He Yining heard the excitement under the metamorphosis from his tone and said gnashing his teeth: "I don''t need you to prove... I want to prove it, I can prove it myself!" "No, no, no, I like helping others best." Meng Yi''s smile became more and more treacherous. He Yining gasped, and the feeling of astringency and coolness hit intermittently. His body began to tremble uncontrollably. Meng Yi looked at her like this and smiled, "it''s happening again... You''re so sensitive." He Yining''s eyes were full of red blood. She looked at Meng Yi''s eyes and wondered. At the same time, she wanted to resist that kind of irritability. However, the more she endured, the more alternating cold and hot her body was, which was extremely uncomfortable. "Did I forget to tell you..." Meng Yi said kindly, "did you scratch your hand before? That wound is poisonous... Hehe, do you know what poison it is?" He Yining''s eyes were filled with fear, and his eyes were filled with fear. "That''s smart. I guessed it all at once." Meng Yi appreciated why he Ning''s fear at the bottom of his eyes, and youyou said, "think about how Li Yunze felt when he saw you in front of him who was also infected with poison?" "That feeling must be very wonderful..." "Li Yunhao was injected with high-purity poison, and finally he couldn''t quit. He couldn''t accept the pain of being controlled by the poison... He committed suicide in front of Li Yunze and Li Jinxi..." "Don''t say it, don''t say it..." why Ning shrunk in pain, and the resistance in his eyes turned into thick self blame, "don''t say it again!" The hoarse roar was squeezed out of his throat. While he Yining''s body was under the attack of the poison, his nerve fell into deep guilt, resistance and fear. She seemed to drown again. The fear shrouded her and left her nowhere to escape But how could Meng Yi let her go? Only when he Yining is in a bad state can Li Yunze lose his calmness, isn''t he?! "You are Li Yunze''s lover. Now he has withdrawn the patent application for you..." Meng Yi youyou said in a voice like a ghost. "Wait a minute, when he comes here, he will give me the research Li Yunhao had to keep even if he died... All this is because of you, okay?" "Stop talking, stop talking..." The voice of begging spilled over her dry lips. Tears had pasted her eyes. That kind of body and mind were suffering and was about to tear her apart. "After so many years, the final result is still the same... Do you think Li Yunhao''s death is meaningless?" He Yining cried sadly, his body trembled more and more on the ground, and his mouth kept whispering ''don''t say it again'', completely falling into self reproach. Meng Yi slowly stood up and looked at why he was so dirty because of tears and soil. His sight suddenly became cold. Suddenly There was a bang! Meng Yi stepped heavily on he Yining, which was the anger accumulated after years of waiting. "Oh!" Why did Ning curl up in pain and tremble more severely. "He Yining, it took me so long to wait for today. Do you know how hard I endure?!" Meng Yi squeezed the words out of his vital teeth and showed his anger under forbearance. "I put all my energy on it, but I waited for so many years for Li Yunhao''s death!" Why Ning slowly raised his eyes and looked at Meng Yi''s ferocious mask with blurred tears, "you won''t succeed... You won''t!" Meng Yi sneered coldly, "whether I will succeed or not depends on you..." he said slowly, "he Yining, all this is because of you... Whether you got the manuscript from Li Yunhao in the past or now, Li Yunze handed in the research because of you." "Ah --" He Yining suddenly shouted. At that moment, as if she had any power, she suddenly got up and jumped at Meng Yi Meng Yi stepped back and looked at he Yining falling to the ground again. After the bottom of his eyes crossed the mockery, he motioned to the people standing around, "tie her to the monitoring room and shut her mouth." "Yes!" Two men came forward. "He Yining, I''ll let you have a good look..." Meng Yi said coldly, "how can your favorite man beg for mercy like a dog because of you!" Chapter 1582 He Yining is locked up in the monitoring room. It is said to be the monitoring room. In fact, there is only a notebook with a picture fixed in the factory. He Yining was tied to the chair and his mouth was sealed with tape. After all this was done, one of them put his notebook directly in front of he Yining. The two men did not leave, but stood one left and one right, with vigilance written on their faces. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze stopped the car and looked at the waste chemical processing plant in front of him. Because of the pollution problem, it has been put on hold for more than a year. The government has not dealt with the follow-up problems, and there is no one nearby. When the phone rang, Li Yunze pressed the answer button, and a cold voice came from inside, "come in with something!" Li Yunze looked at the front of his eyes, got out of the car with the patent application files and research materials, and walked to the factory. Standing in the factory building, there was a cold breath everywhere. Even the scorching sun at three or four o''clock in the afternoon can not dispel the cold and overcast here because there has been no one for a long time. Li Yunze didn''t move or even speak. He knows very well that he is now under the surveillance of the other party, and they can see every move. However, Li Yunze didn''t expect that he would stand here for almost an hour without anyone showing up "It''s really a person who can stand in the operating room for more than ten hours and concentrate with high intensity. Li Shao is very patient." Meng Yi came out with a mask and a gentle clap of hands. Behind him, he was followed by a few tough men, either domestic or foreign, who looked like killers or mercenaries. There were footsteps behind him. Li Yunze glanced back slightly. Yu Guang caught a glimpse of many big men coming out around him and gradually surrounded him in the middle. "Where are the people?" Li Yunze didn''t care who the other party was, nor did he care about the murderous spirit of those young men. His only concern now is he Yining. Meng Yi stopped about ten meters in front of Li Yunze. He looked at Li Yunze with sharp eyes and looked at him. I met Li Yunze before because of Qu Weiwei. At that time, Li Yunze gave him a feeling of high and cold. It was a sense of alienation that he wouldn''t spend more time if he didn''t pay attention to it. At the moment, although Li Yunze looks a little sloppy, he is more human. This is a good phenomenon, isn''t it? "Where are the people?!" Seeing that the other party didn''t speak, Li Yunze gritted his teeth again and asked. There was a movement behind Li Yunze. He Yining looked at the monitor and suddenly widened his eyes. His sealed mouth kept "purring" and was completely worried. Li Yunze glanced back slightly. Yu Guang could see a man behind him holding a baseball bat and gently tapping his own hand. Taking back his sight, Li Yunze ignored it, looked at Meng Yi and asked for the third time: "where are people?" The sound of "bang" came. When he Yining looked at the monitor and his pupils dilated, the baseball bat fell on Li Yunze''s back. Li Yunze rushed forward for two steps. First, he was numb because of the sudden pain behind him. After a few seconds, what followed was the burning pain. "Hard spirit!" Meng Yi spoke slowly and didn''t say a word to Li Yunze. There was a trace of appreciation in his eyes. Li Yunze slowly raised his eyes. After seeing Meng Yi, his eyes turned left and right He didn''t find anything, but he seemed to know something. "Silly rather, don''t be afraid..." Li Yunze gritted his teeth, his eyes still turned left and right, "I''m fine." "Woo woo..." he Yining''s nerves were tense all the time, because Li Yunze''s "silly Ning" completely collapsed, and tears burst out in an instant. Different from Meng Yi''s "torture" at that time, at this moment, he Yining just instinctively gushed out his emotions, relying on and worrying. "Li Yunze, a person like you, even if you are not in the medical field, I''m afraid you have made great achievements..." Meng Yi drew a vicious cold arc on one side of the corner of his mouth, "bring me something!" "Here''s what you want..." Li Yunze raised his hand and looked at Meng Yi''s eyes. "I want to see someone!" "Do you think you have the right to negotiate terms with me here alone?" A cold sneer. Li Yunze smiled. "This is a chemical plant. Maybe the smell in the air is too pungent. You can''t find what I put on the data..." he took out the lighter from his pocket and opened his mouth gently, "Don''t worry, I''m not soaked in gasoline, but... I think you should know very well that if people like me want to make these things burn instantly, it doesn''t take any effort." Meng Yi felt a touch of panic in the bottom of his eyes, but it was only a moment and disappeared. "Then we''ll have to kill the fish and break the net..." Meng Yi said with confidence. Li Yunze''s face changed slightly. Similarly, it was only for a moment. Meng Yi smiled, "Li Yunze, why is one better in my hand? You are doomed not to be qualified to talk to me about conditions..." he leaned over and paced around. "It''s still very simple to subdue you with so many people... But I''m not in a hurry." With that, he stopped and faced Li Yunze again. Smile, very comfortable smile. Meng Yi looked at Li Yunze, who pretended to be calm, and slowly said, "why don''t I show you a video first..." as he said, he gestured slightly. Soon, someone came to Li Yunze with a notebook, pressed the start button, and the suspended picture began to move. In the picture, why Ning curled up on the ground with a cold sweat on his face and kept shaking. In that way, Li Yunze was so familiar that he forgot to control his emotions almost instantly. "It seems that you already know without me..." Meng Yi said slowly. "Why is Ning addicted to drugs? She is very young, so although she is sad, she can bear it." Li Yunze slightly clenched his hand and looked at Meng Yi''s eyes full of forbearance under anger. "The same thing is faced twice. Tut Tut, I''m a little excited, but I still sympathize with you..." Meng Yi looked at Li Yunze and gently bit his head, as if he was very sorry. "Do you know the role of your research for us?" "You know..." "Hehe, it''s ridiculous to think about it." Meng Yi didn''t speak to Li Yunze either. A person seemed to whisper, "this research is of great benefit to the drug sample, but in order to get the research, both Li Yunhao and he Yining have been addicted to drugs." Li Yunze''s body trembled slightly because of forbearance. At the moment, he Yining, who was monitoring there, was also trembling. Her thoughts were just slightly clear because of Li Yunze''s "silly Ning", and gradually, because of Meng Yi''s words, she fell into self blame and regret and felt deeply guilty. "Now he Yining''s drug addiction is very slight. With your medical genius, it''s easy to pull out her addiction." Meng Yi paused deliberately. When the surrounding air became dangerous, he said slowly, "Li Yunze, you said... Why would you rather be addicted to irresistible drugs?" Chapter 1583 "What do you want to do?" Li Yunze can''t continue to "calm down" after all. A pair of eyes are like spitting fire. "What do you say?" Meng Yi gave a slight sigh and gave a slight sign. I saw the man with the computer typing a few keys on the keyboard, and the picture turned into the room where he Yining was closed at the moment. Li Yunze looked at the past, and they were in the monitoring, with opposite lines of sight He Yining''s door was opened and Zheng Hao came in with a box in his hand. He first looked at he Yining, then opened the box and took out a needle tube from inside. There is liquid in the needle tube. It is transparent and people can''t see anything strange. As doctors, Li Yunze and he Yining are too familiar with needles. It can be said that that is a part of their life However, at this moment, when the two men saw the needle, there was resistance and panic in their eyes. "This thing has a nice name..." Meng Yi said calmly as if to torture Li Yunze and he Yining''s will and make them collapse. "It''s called ''happy water''." He paused deliberately, looked at Li Yunze''s frightened face and smiled, "you must be familiar with this... After Li Yunhao was insane because he injected a large dose of ''happy water'', under delusional schizophrenia, one side was responsible and the other side was the temptation of poison... It led to the final suicide!" Li Yunze stared at the needle tube in Zheng Hao''s hand, as if he could see it and disappear. "He Yining is sick..." Meng Yi deliberately accentuated the word "sick". Looking at the resistance in the monitoring, he Yining smiled, "you said, what will she do under delusional schizophrenia?" "Ah..." Li Yunze suddenly glanced at Meng Yi and said gnashing his teeth, "I have brought the research, all the steps are very clear, and I have withdrawn the patent application. What else do you want later?" "What do you want?" Meng Yi smiled, "Li Yunze, I want you to beg me, beg me for your research, beg me to use your research to make more people in the world suffer..." he walked forward slowly, "think about how you can be better for one, how many people are in the pain of life and death, and how many families will be broken?" Meng Yi said, and his voice became excited. "Your Li family has been a family of medicine for generations. Your hands have been created to save people... Your brother Li Yunhao didn''t take out the research even if he died... And you? Why should you make your brother''s death so ridiculous for a reason!" "Shut up!" Li Yunze gasped and hurriedly looked at the monitor. Sure enough, he didn''t know what Meng Yi said and why Yining couldn''t control his pale face. At the same time, the whole person fell into fear under mania. "Yining, it''s not like that, not what he said..." "Why not?" Meng Yi interrupted Li Yunze''s attempt to appease he Yining and said with a sharp smile, "Li Yunze, you are now!" "Woo woo... Woo..." Why Ning''s tears have blurred her sight. She kept struggling and looked at the computer and kept shaking her head. Li Yunze''s body began to tremble uncontrollably Now he is in a dilemma. If she gives something to each other face to face in front of Yining, her emotional illness may not be good in her life, and even... In the end, even without the control of the poison, she will go to extremes. However, if he doesn''t give it, the so-called "happy water" will be injected into he Yining''s body, and the result... The same! "You don''t keep your word!" Li Yunze gnashed his teeth. "I did what you said. You still said something to Yining that you shouldn''t say!" "Credit?" Meng Yi seemed to hear a big joke, "do you think people like us will talk about credit with you? It''s ridiculous!" Li Yunze''s pupils had gradually spread because of worry. Why did Ning''s sobbing voice keep coming, and stabbed him with a knife, so that he couldn''t breathe. "I beg you to take away the research..." Li Yunze knew what Meng Yi wanted wisely. He closed his eyes. Now he can only pray that Yi Ning can be stronger for him. He tilted his head to the video and slowly opened his mouth with encouragement and firmness in his sight. "I beg you to take the research of my brother and me and poison more people." his teeth trembled badly, but he was more firm when looking at he Yining''s sight. "Let more families... Because of this research, destroy!" "Woo..." Why Ning burst into tears, his mouth was sealed, and he couldn''t make a sound completely. The sound hurt li Yunze''s nerve. Yining, please be strong for me. Please! Emotional illness may break you down completely, but it''s better than being injected with poison At least, if you are ill, I can accompany you, help you and see you! However, once the drug is injected Li Yunze didn''t dare to think about it. Li Yunhao''s last death surrounded him. He was afraid to bear such a scene again! Tough to take back his sight, Li Yunze went to Meng Yi and handed him the information in the most "pious" way. Meng Yi smiled. He didn''t pick it up. He just looked at Li Yunze''s arrogant body and bowed down. He smiled strangely. "Li Yunze, you really should see what you look like now!" Meng Yi said slowly, "thanks to you, you are still a person who practices medicine to save people. What did your doctor say when he had an oath?" He raised his eyebrows, paused and then suddenly said, "Oh, yes... It''s to ''practice medicine in an innocent way, only for the treatment of diseases. Don''t give the poison to anyone, and never instruct anyone to use it''. Tut Tut, Li Yunze, are you breaking your oath now?" ¡­¡­ "Silly Ning, here is your persistence and mine. I not only want to practice medicine in vain, but also want to hold hands with you vigorously..." ¡­¡­ Three years ago, Li Yunze proposed to he Yining under the Hippocratic statue of the University of Los Angeles Medical School At that moment, it was full of romance. But at this moment, such words have become irony and a dagger to gouge out the last trace of emotion! "Without her, my whole world is gone. Why should I care about others?" Li Yunze said something against his heart, but it was not against his heart. For what reason, he can die... What''s the humbleness at the moment? What''s wrong with your heart at the moment? How many people did he save with one hand? But if you can''t save the person you care about most, what''s the meaning of him? Meng Yi looks at Li Yunze''s forbearing expression on his face, probes his hand, and slowly takes the information and patent application he handed over "Li Yunze, these hands are very important to you!" Meng Yi opened his mouth quietly and glanced at he Yining in the monitoring. "He Yining, do you think Li Yunze''s hands... Are important?" He Yining shook his head instinctively and shouted again in his heart No, no, no... no! No! "A pair of hands with scalpels, if..." Meng Yi looked at Li Yunze''s slender hands, and his eyes burst out bloodthirsty spitting out two words, "ruined..." Chapter 1584 Just when he Yining''s nerve seemed to be lifted up like a string puppet, Meng Yi said "ha ha". Li Yunze was unmoved by Meng Yi''s words. At the moment, he had forgotten to worry about himself and just kept praying in his mind Yining, be strong for me, please! Meng Yi''s gloved hand gently crossed Li Yunze''s hand, which had not been taken back because of Li Yunze''s knee bending posture. "Tut Tut," he said slowly, "don''t worry... How could I destroy such a pair of saving hands?" He drew back his hand, looked at Li Yunze and said with a smile, "but when you broke your doctor''s oath and gave me the ''poison''... Will your conscience allow you to use these hands again to save people?" Li Yunze''s sharp heart began to tremble. He slowly got up and looked at Meng Yi. The ferocious mask made him feel that the air around him was cold. He Yining was completely shattered by Meng Yi''s last words. She was frightened, she resisted, she was afraid... She blamed herself and felt guilty! All the emotions surged up, tearing all her nerves and making her miserable. "Yining..." Li Yunze''s words were just exported, and the video has been cut off. "I''ve given you something. What else do you want?" Li Yunze''s Scarlet eyes suddenly looked at Meng Yi, and his voice roared. Meng Yi looked down at the information in his hand and ignored Li Yunze. He just opened the patent application... One by one. When it is confirmed that the patent application has not been forged, signal the person on one side to destroy it, open the research data and look at. Meng Yi spilled a shallow smile from the corner of his mouth and said slowly, "when I leave Los Angeles safely, I will return he Yining to you." "How can I trust you?" Li Yunze gnashed his teeth. "You also said, don''t promise you." Meng Yi smiled, "you have no choice but to believe..." paused, "Li Yunze, don''t think about playing games with me, because you can''t afford to play a game." Li Yunze''s hands clenched tightly and made a "quack" sound, which filled his red blood eyes and became terrible because of anger. "In fact, you can rest assured that as long as you are obedient, I won''t do anything about why..." Meng Yi said softly. "After all, she doesn''t need me to do anything now, does she?" After a pause, he looked at Li Yunze''s increasingly angry eyes, and his blood began to surge with excitement, "of course, if you have to see another Li Yunhao, I wouldn''t mind... Pulling a cushion." Li Yunze''s body was trembling with forbearance. As the other party said, because Yining was in the other party''s hand, he couldn''t do anything now. Meng Yi smiled at the corner of his mouth and slightly motioned to the big man standing behind Li Yunze. Just when Li Yunze felt a strong wind coming and was about to react, he hit him hard on the back of his neck. Suddenly, his eyes were black and his body was paralyzed "Yining, be firm..." Li Yunze said subconsciously before he was unconscious. However, before the words are finished, people have fallen into the darkness. "Wuwu... Wuwu..." He Yining can still see the picture from the monitor here. She looked at Li Yunze lying on the ground, and her tears fell uncontrollably. "I said I would test for you. Does Li Yunze love you..." Zheng Hao said with a smile as he Yining looked at him. "Alas, you said, we are very busy, but we have to test for you. You should thank us and cooperate with us, right?" Why Ning looked at Zheng Hao angrily, even though her thoughts were full of self blame and guilt, but at this moment, she was more worried about Li Yunze. The cause of all this is because of her, and finally because of her "I''m afraid of your eyes..." Zheng Hao smiled, but his eyes were full of sympathy. "Alas, I really love you when I think about it. You said you chased Li Yunze for more than ten years and finally couldn''t be together, but I found that Li Yunhao committed suicide because of you." After a pause, he seemed to say with regret, "it was not easy for Li Yunze to get out of his brother''s shadow, but you made him violate medical ethics." Why should Ning be a little sober, because Zheng Hao''s words fell into a nervous tear again "You guess, his hands personally presented the research, which is equivalent to indirectly killing many people... Can he still pick up the scalpel and save people?" "Well..." He Yining finally because of this sentence, the whole person can''t accept and imagine the roar of the ending. However, because her mouth was sealed, her roaring voice was so strange that people''s feet were cold. Looking at why Yining, Zheng Hao sneered at the corner of his mouth, looked at the injection in his hand, and said gently: "I really want to inject ''happy water'' into your body and let Li Yunze try to die in front of his favorite person again." He sighed, "what a pity... Compared with letting you die so soon, leaving you with a time bomb beside him will make you feel different." The door was opened at the right time. Meng Yi came in, glanced at he Yining, nodded with Zheng Hao, and signaled the big man to leave with her. The sun outside has moved westward, and the air is filled with the aftercold at the end of winter. Meng Yi and others got on a very ordinary business car. After getting on the bus, Zheng Hao threw he Yining into the back seat. Meng Yi looks at the time. "Li Yunze will wake up in two or three hours at most. Although the Dragon owl''s people have Li Yunze''s recording to delay time, I''m afraid they have noticed it." "The plane leaving is arranged at three in the morning. I''m afraid we''ll have to spend some time during this period." Zheng Hao looked at why Yining and said, "although why Yining is in our hands." Meng Yi tilted his head and stared. He Yining, who was on the verge of collapse, coldly took back his sight, "has Qu Weiwei been released?" "Should be out by now." Zheng Hao said. Meng Yi lightly scratched a sneer at the corner of his mouth, "give Qu Weiwei why Ning later. She can naturally ''help'' US delay time..." ¡­¡­ Outside the Los Angeles prison, Qu Weiwei stood outside, watching the sunset outside and didn''t move for a long time. For more than three years, she is no longer the bright jewelry designer Vivian. Now she has nothing but hatred Qu Weiwei looked back at the direction of the prison and said that she couldn''t look back after going out. If she looked, she would come in. A sneer crossed the corner of his mouth. Why did she come in? No more This time out, she must let all the people who caused her situation today live better than die! Qu Weiwei took back her sight and walked forward step by step There was a car parked there in front. When Qu Weiwei passed, the driver put down the window and said, "Meng Yi asked me to pick you up!" Chapter 1585 Qu Weiwei glanced at the driver, didn''t ask anything, opened the door and got into the car. Meng Yi is not a simple person. She always knows. She knew later what she wanted from Li Yunze. When Meng Yi wanted to get Li Yunhao''s research, she knew that no matter how Li Yunze didn''t want her out of prison, she would come out "Has Meng Yi got what he wants?" Qu Weiwei asked calmly. The driver glanced in the rearview mirror and didn''t speak. Qu Weiwei didn''t plan what the other party would say, but she was sure that Meng Yi must have got what she wanted. Otherwise, she won''t be able to get out without any omen Qu Weiwei looked sideways at the passing street view outside the window. There were heavy traffic and neon lights. This city is still that prosperous city. Just, how many people have tried in the darkness under the city lights?! Qu Weiwei took back her sight and sneered at the corners of her mouth. That kind of smile, treacherous as if the cold air outside, makes people feel that the pervasive cold is pressing. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze lay on the ground with his hands slightly curled up. Then, while frowning, he slowly opened his eyes. The air was filled with the pungent smell of chemical raw materials. Li Yunze weakly fanned his eyes. While his thoughts gradually converged, a whisper overflowed from his throat, "Yining..." "Er", Li Yunze stood up slowly, holding the ground and enduring the pain from his cervical spine. The darkness around makes people feel like a ghost. Li Yunze''s body shook unsteadily before he gradually stood firm. Looking around, he closed his eyes, ignored his physical discomfort and hurried out of the factory There is no means of transportation outside. I''m afraid he can''t walk to the city in two or three hours from here. When the other party keeps asking him to change cars and detour, I''m afraid even Xiao Yu can''t find him for a while. "Yining, you wait for me..." Li Yunze''s body is exhausted at the moment and is completely supported by strength. "You must wait for me, I''ll come to you... You wait for me!" Li Yunze swallowed hard. Even though he knew how difficult it was to leave here, he couldn''t wait for a miracle to happen. There are no miracles in this world. Everything can only depend on yourself! Just when Li Yunze had just left the chemical plant, Xiao Yu asked Xiao Qiang, "don''t you think it''s strange?" "Huh?" Xiao Qiang didn''t react. "From last night until now, we contacted Li Shao as if his mood was wrong..." a trace of doubt appeared on Xiao Yu''s indifferent face. Xiao Qiang looked at the positioning, "but Li Shao''s positioning is normal." Xiao Yu glanced at Li Yunze''s mobile phone signal displayed on the computer screen. When he dialed the phone, the signal was OK. But he just felt something was wrong. "You said, what would happen if the other party got the research materials?" Xiao Yu asked. Xiao Qiang said without thinking, "of course, he left Los Angeles..." he shrugged. "In China, this research, whether there is a patent application or not, must be protected. Only transfer is the safest." Xiao Yu nodded and agreed with Xiao Qiang. He got up and walked out without saying anything "What are you doing?" Xiao Qiang asked hurriedly. "You stay here and dial Li Shao''s phone again in half an hour. If there is anything unusual, remember to inform me." While Xiao Yu finished, the man had gone out of the door. After getting on the bus, Xiao Qiang immediately asked about the airports in lower Los Angeles and surrounding cities through his relationship. All airports replied that there was no private plane trip in these two days. Xiao Yu frowned. He can''t feel wrong. There must be something wrong with it. But what''s wrong?! ¡­¡­ When Qu Weiwei saw Meng Yi, she suddenly wanted to laugh. "I haven''t seen you for more than three years. Today is the first time I see your ''true face''?" Qu Weiwei said calmly. "It seems that the time in prison has not erased your hatred." Meng Yi puts a glass of water in front of Qu Weiwei. Qu Weiwei smiled softly, "obliterate? How can it be obliterated?" She slowly raised her eyes and looked at Meng Yi. "I had a bright life. Now what do I have? I have nothing... Why don''t I hate? I don''t complain?" Meng Yi sits down opposite. He is very satisfied with Qu Weiwei''s anger at the moment. "He Yining is in my hands now," Meng Yi said. "I have got what I want... Man, I can give it to you. After all, we have enjoyed our cooperation for so many years." "Good!" Qu Weiwei didn''t refuse, and her eyes burst out with the light of excitement because she could take revenge. "With why Yining in hand, I will make Li Yunze miserable!" Listening to her gnashing of teeth, Meng Yi''s eyes were deep. "Everything I have today is caused by Li Yunze and he Yining." Qu Weiwei sneered, "I''ll let them have a good taste and lose all the pain!" "He Yining has an emotional illness, and now it has reached a very serious level..." Meng Yi took an apple and began to peel it. At the same time, he said gently, "you should be careful not to make her manic, otherwise, if you can''t cure it, you will make her bite back." "After so much experience, do you think I will give her a chance?" Qu Weiwei''s eyes are covered with hatred. Meng Yi''s eyes looked at Qu Weiwei deeply. While his eyes were familiar with Qu Weiwei, he raised his hand slightly. Someone brought he Yining in and threw him in front of Qu Weiwei like throwing rags. Qu Weiwei looked at the embarrassed he Yining and said with a sneer: "the proud daughter of heaven? The little princess loved by her parents? The love of Li Yunze? The person Jin shaosi has defended with great care... Hehe, he Yining, you have today?!" When she put her foot on her hand, she heard a painful chant of "Oh" from her. Qu Weiwei took back her feet, got up, squatted down in front of he Yining, held her chin in her hand, looked at her lax vision, sprinkled a handful of salt on her wound and said, "how about you took the research away and killed Li Yunhao, and now you''re about to kill Li Yunze, what''s your mood?" He Yining''s body began to tremble and his face turned white again. Not only because of Qu Weiwei''s words, but also because of the fact that the drug addict has come up again "He Yining, I''ll let you have a good taste of what it''s like to be miserable!" In Qu Weiwei''s words, she dumped her anger and slapped her. Meng Yi is very satisfied with Qu Weiwei''s performance. With such hatred, she is sure to hold Li Yunze back and give them a complete chance to leave. Time goes by slowly. Just after midnight, when the world was quiet, Meng Yi and others had finished the whole turn and were ready to leave. Just as they left, Qu Weiwei stood in front of the window and looked at the car leaving in the dark. Her eyes turned sideways and went to he Yining. He Yining fell into a semi coma. Her hair was suddenly grabbed by Qu Weiwei, and she opened her eyes powerlessly. "You say..." Qu Weiwei flashed a sinister smile at the corner of her mouth. "I''ll tell Li Yunze where Meng Yi is going right now. Will he go to them to work hard?" Chapter 1586 He Yining didn''t move, but his breath was thick and shabby, lying on the ground. Qu Weiwei looked at such he Yining, and the corners of her mouth suddenly smiled. It was a hatred under bloodthirsty, with the madness of destroying the sky and the earth. She walked slowly to he Yining and squatted down. She grabbed her knotted and dirty hair and pulled it suddenly... Just let her raise her head and slightly open her eyes to look at her because of the pain. "He Yining, do you know that the person I hate most from childhood to childhood is you..." Qu Weiwei said with scarlet eyes. "You have a good family background, love your parents, and Jin shaosi who pays silently for you. Even if you are so upset, you can''t treat you like Li Yunze because of your family background." Wei Ning doesn''t know whether she is dehydrated or unreal, but she doesn''t know whether she is going to lose her sight or listen to her words. Qu Weiwei suddenly let go of he Yining''s hair, and her face hit the ground directly He Yining can''t feel the pain at the moment. How can the pain on her body hurt her more than that on her heart? "And me?" Qu Weiwei sneered, "I haven''t had a father since I was a child, and my mother is your servant..." paused. She looked at he Yining coldly, "but my mother is better to you than me!" Why did Ning hand curl up slightly and listen silently. "You are a young lady, carefree, and you can do whatever you want..." Qu Weiwei''s eyes are scarlet. "I''m very busy, but you don''t care if I want to accompany you because of what you want to do!" He Yining gently fanned his eyes, and the memory surged up like breaking the ice When I was a child, I took Qu Weiwei everywhere, and the scene of chasing after Yunze. However, she is when Weiwei is a friend and best friend, so she wants to share everything with her! Good food, good clothes, even... All her secrets. "I''m really tired of your behavior!" Qu Weiwei gnashed her teeth. "So, I told myself, I want to be a person. I want you to understand how annoying, even... Boring, people like you are!" "Do you know how happy I was to see Li Yunze hate you so much? How excited I was to see you misunderstand me with Li Yunze?" "I don''t love Li Yunze, but I just want to be with him, because then you will be sad... Ha ha, the taste of being betrayed by ''best friend'', I know, you will collapse, and then go to find Li Yunze!" "Mingming, you have tasted all kinds of loss. Why do you get Li Yunze''s love after you lose everything? Why do you?!" Qu Weiwei said here, her eyes filled with hatred, and the flame stared big. "How''s it going? I killed my parents and Li Yunhao. Now... I''m going to kill Li Yunze again. Isn''t it great?" Qu Weiwei smiled. He Yining finally had a reaction. She raised her eyes hard and looked at Qu Weiwei with hatred in her eyes. Qu Weiwei was very excited to see her like this, and said at a very slow speed: "I forgot that you and Li Yunze have a daughter..." Why Ning burst out in a moment of shock and said hard: "Qu Weiwei... You, you want..." "What do I want to do?" Qu Weiwei smiled, took out her mobile phone and dialed Meng Yi in front of he Yining. "Meng Yi, I forgot to tell you... Li Yunze and he Yining still have a daughter. Well, they should be seven or eight years old now!" "Er..." Why Ning''s throat made a strange roar, and she didn''t know where the strength came from. She suddenly jumped at Qu Weiwei. Qu Weiwei had already seen her move and immediately retreated. He Yining fell down because she threw herself into the air and couldn''t hold her body steady Just listen to the ''Bang'', why Ning''s forehead knocked on one side of the tea table, and she was in pain for a moment. Qu Weiwei was very excited to see her like this. While hanging up the phone, she looked down at he Yining with contempt and said, "you will kill everyone around you." He paused, "don''t worry. For the sake of your kindness to me when you were a child, I will let you and Li Yunze meet for the last time." ¡­¡­ Li Yunze finally met someone, "give you the money and give me your mobile phone!" He was glad he had left his wallet in the car, but he took cash with him. Passers-by was scared by Li Yunze''s appearance, but he saw the thick money in his hand, thought about his mobile phone bought for hundreds of yuan, and said suspiciously, "are you sure?" "Don''t talk nonsense. Do you sell it?" Li Yunze''s body was filled with a breath of horror. "Sell!" The man quickly took out his mobile phone to Li Yunze and took the money. Afraid that Li Yunze would regret it, he hurried away. Li Yunze closed his eyes. Many people''s phone numbers were immediately drawn from their minds. He opened his eyes and quickly dialed the number. "Hello?" Fang Xiran drove the car and opened his mouth with a slight smile. "What''s the matter with you?" Li Yunze gasped. "Your people are dragging in the open. I''m going well here. I''m sure it''s a fly and I can''t get out of Los Angeles!" After finishing, Fang Xiran asked, "how are you?" "Yining is still in their hands..." Li Yunze said with some unsteady breath, "the situation is not optimistic." Fang Xiran was silent at first, then said, "deal with those people first," paused. "Now it''s the issue of the other party''s nationality. We must ask the other party to stay at home and catch them, otherwise, we have no ability to catch them abroad." "I know." Li Yunze was a little collapsed because he was highly nervous physically and mentally for a long time, and there was no rest. "Please contact me at any time." "Yes." Fang Xiran knows that this is not the time to "pull the family". After looking at the surrounding environment, Li Yunze first called the car from the 24-hour car rental company, then checked the local number, called the telecommunications company and transferred his mobile phone number call here. Just transferred, the mobile phone rang "Li Shao?" Xiao Qiang frowned and asked. "It''s me!" Li Yunze said with unstable breath. Xiao Qiang looked at the signal location and mobile phone location and frowned, "your signal location is wrong." "The call was transferred..." Li Yunze didn''t have time to explain, "where''s Xiao Yu?" "Xiao Yu said that the other party may not go through formal channels, but if you want to leave the country, you must use a private plane." Xiao Qiang said, "he''s trying to get air control!" At the same time After Zheng Hao answered the phone, his face suddenly changed, "stop!" "What''s the matter?" Meng Yi frowns. Zheng Hao looked at Meng Yi. "Air control is over. Private planes are not allowed to take off in three days and across the country." "What?" Meng Yi suddenly stares. Chapter 1587 Zheng Hao''s face became more and more dignified, and Meng Yi''s face was also unbelievable. They used so much energy to calculate again and again, and even spent a day to circle with Li Yunze, so that when the Dragon owl''s eyes moved to Li Yunze, they had enough time to leave. Meng Yi''s breath is a little unstable. Seeing that things that have been persistent for so many years are about to succeed, he is not allowed to fail at the last minute. "Drive directly to D city and leave from CX country." Meng Yi spoke calmly. "The question now is, will it..." "There are not so many problems." Meng Yi motioned the driver to drive. "There are only two people in Los Angeles. Gu Beichen doesn''t help Li Yunze. He doesn''t have so many people to transfer. Now it''s the safest to take land." The driver has turned the direction and sped along. The originally relaxed and excited atmosphere in the car suddenly became tense. Meng Yi called Qu Weiwei. Qu Weiwei looked at the location signal displayed on the location software she had just finished when Meng Yi''s phone rang. When the corner of her mouth was cold and fierce, she answered the phone: "haven''t you left yet?" "There was a little accident, holding Li Yunze back." Meng Yi said, "Weiwei, if you don''t want them to feel better..." "How could I want them to feel better?" Qu Weiwei smiled and opened her mouth. "Be careful after you delay. Los Angeles can''t stay any longer. The world is so big. You can still be a master if you change your identity." Meng Yi said. Qu Weiwei''s smile around her mouth became a little strange, "I understand." "Well, hang up first." "Good!" Qu Weiwei answered and hung up the phone. Looking at the moving point on the mobile phone signal, she glanced at he Yining. "You must be worried that Meng Yi will take away the research? I''ll tell Li Yunze to chase him..." Why did Ning hand curl up again? The whole head is dizzy. No matter how much emotion there is, it can''t be expressed. Qu Weiwei sent the location map to Li Yunze. At the moment, she didn''t know that Li Yunze''s mobile phone wasn''t there before... It''s just that there are always some coincidences in the world. For example, at the moment, Li Yunze can receive the information sent to him by Qu Weiwei. "Well, the game has begun. Let me take you to see him..." Qu Weiwei got up and installed her mobile phone and mentioned why she was soft and weak. She really wants to thank Li Yunze and he Yining. If she hadn''t been in prison for more than three years and under the oppression of Wang Xia, how could she have such great strength now? ¡­¡­ Li Yunze looked at the location signal diagram and information content, and suddenly frowned. The information content is: positioning is to take away the researcher, and he Yining is in his car. Li Yunze looked at the information without signature, and his eyes suddenly gathered. He dialed back, but no one answered. He was transferred to the message mailbox. Li Yunze sent the location map to Xiao Qiang and soon got feedback "You mean, this car was supposed to go to a private airport, but now it''s changing lanes?" Li Yunze asked. "I made a small program these two days and adjusted the monitoring. It''s right in the program," Xiao Qiang said. "The car originally came out of the blue ocean community." Li Yunze frowned, "let Xiao Yu go to the blue ocean community and see if Yining is there!" "But..." Xiao Qiang frowned, "why don''t I go there? Xiao Yu has to check out the exit..." "No, they turned the direction, indicating that they had given up flying out of the country." Li Yunze drove the car and sped away in the direction of the fixed location map. "He went to see if Yining was there. You keep an eye on the car for me." "Good!" Li Yunze hung up the phone, his eyes full of calm under the fire. Using Fang Xiran, he didn''t tell anyone, even Xiao Qiang them. The other party just thought that without Beichen''s assistance, there were not many people he could use Thoughts, across the scene of that day. "Li Yunze, tell me about you. Why did I think you were good enough to marry?" Fang Xi ran turned his eyes. "I finally took a holiday. The organization approved it in order to let me get married. But when you do this, I''m not working again?" "Help or not?" Li Yunze asked, gritting his teeth. Fang Xiran sighed helplessly, "I really owe you..." paused, "what else can I say in terms of national interests?" Yes, Fang Xiran is a soldier. Even without Li Yunze''s personal relationship, she has no reason to refuse such a thing. She has a family background and can secretly mobilize many people. Even, she is a scout herself. She can do a lot of things without any contact with Li Yunze. No matter how smart a person is, there will be a time when he is a stranger. Li Yunze, Gu Beichen, Meng Yi... Naturally! "Brother Yi, there is a temporary inspection ahead." "Change lanes!" Meng Yi''s voice is slightly cold. "Brother Yi, the road ahead is impassable. He is building a road..." "There are roadblocks ahead!" "Front..." Zheng Hao wrung his eyebrows. "It seems that Li Yunze is still taking risks in a desperate way and has left a backhand." "It seems that he doesn''t want it." Meng Yi gnashes his teeth and just wants to dial Qu Weiwei, "I''m on my way out of the city in the western suburbs. You can bring him Yining." "I''ve come with he Yining." Qu Weiwei glanced at he Yining, who was not angry, and slowly opened her mouth, "Oh, Meng Yi, I forgot to tell you. I gave your location information to Li Yunze and told him why Yining was in your car." "Qu Weiwei, what do you want to do?" Meng Yi said and saw a car speeding in his direction. Qu Weiwei smiled and smiled very treacherously, "what am I doing?" She said softly, her voice getting colder and gnashing her teeth, "of course I want you all to die!" Meng Yi narrows his eyes slightly. From Qu Weiwei''s voice, he hears hate, including for her. "No matter Li Yunze or he Yining, and you... I have today, none of you can escape!" Qu Weiwei''s voice was sharp, "so you all have to die!" Meng Yi hung up the phone with unstable breath. He didn''t expect that Qu Weiwei was originally used to clamp down Li Yunze, but left a time bomb for himself. "What''s going on?" Zheng Hao asked. "I originally wanted to use Qu Weiwei to delay time, but unexpectedly, it was her who finally dragged us!" Meng Yi said gnashing his teeth, full of anger at his blunder. "How?" Zheng Hao obviously didn''t believe it. "She suffered so much in prison. She hated Li Yunze and he Yining. How could she help them?" "Maybe it''s not helping..." Meng Yi gritted her teeth. "She just wants to see us all die!" Zheng Hao twitched at the corners of his mouth, as if he suddenly understood the meaning of Meng Yi''s words. "Wrong step by step..." Meng Yi said coldly, "this is the end of the matter. We must deal with Li Yunze before Qu Weiwei comes." Meng Yi said, took out the gun from under the seat and loaded it! Chapter 1588 "Stop!" The driver stopped the car. Meng Yi didn''t wear a mask at this moment, but just got out of the car. Li Yunze also stopped the car. He looked at Meng Yi who got off and opened the door to get off. They looked at each other like this in the light of the car. At this moment, they knew very well that only when they faced it calmly could they win the most favorable opportunity for themselves. Li Yunze looked at Meng Yi. "I felt very familiar with the sound in the chemical plant before. It was you..." paused. "You''ve been around Qu Weiwei for so long. You really spent your time and effort for this research." "Yes, so I don''t allow failure." Meng Yi paused, "Li Yunze, it seems that you can give everything to he Yining before. Now it seems that... It''s not! It seems that you don''t care about her life or death at all." With that, Meng Yi''s grab has already pointed to the car glass, and the intention is very obvious. Li Yunze doesn''t know whether he Yining is in the car or not. Just now, Xiao Yu called him and didn''t find Yining, but he found the trace of being taken away. "Is Yining really in the car?" Li Yunze sneered, "I don''t think so?" Thinking of the strange information and positioning before, Li Yunze was not sure who it was, but inexplicably, seeing Meng Yi at this moment, he thought of Qu Weiwei But shouldn''t Qu Weiwei be in prison? Li Yunze frowned slightly and wondered whether Meng Yi had managed to get Qu Weiwei out these two days. "Why not be in the car? Why are you chasing me?" Meng Yi also smiled. "The research is in your hands, isn''t it?" Li Yunze opened his mouth and tried to keep calm and said slowly, "after all, I gave you the research personally in front of Yining. Naturally, I should take it back with my own hands, so as not to increase the burden of Yining." He said, looking at Meng Yi with burning eyes, trying to see something from his face. It''s a pity that people like Meng Yi have mastered the skill of keeping his face unchanged under any circumstances. How can Li Yunze see anything? Unable to determine why he would rather not be in the car, Li Yunze could not take the next step. After he can''t do so much, he will compensate for Yining. What''s the point of doing this? The mobile phone rang at the right time, and the bell full of square wind was particularly harsh in the silent suburbs. Li Yunze kept looking at Meng Yi and answered the phone. "Li Yunze, the patent has come down..." in the phone, came the excited voice of the director of the patent office, "for your patent, I have to cooperate with you in acting, and I have to watch the results in the middle of the night under the time difference. It''s really not easy for the director of the patent office to be so dedicated before being promoted..." The director of the Patent Office looked at the examination results and breathed a long sigh. His mind was full of the scene when Li Yunze came to apply for a patent. At that time, political commissar Fang told him that he had to go through two application procedures and seal them with real and effective paint. When Li Yunze said he was going to withdraw his patent application, he reacted Such research must be watched by many people. Li Yunze withdrew, but he was still applying. Even if the other party succeeded in the end, he was also protected and would only be wanted by Interpol. "Oh, my heart has been hanging, but I finally put it down..." the director of the patent office still sighed. "I have something else here. I''ll see you later." Li Yunze said that and hung up. The director of the Patent Office listened to the "Dudu" hang up sound from his mobile phone, grinned at the corners of his mouth, and muttered with a dissatisfied black and calm face, "shit, people with ability and backstage are really dragging ¡­¡­ The patent has come down, and Meng Yi can''t have the opportunity to leave For Li Ning, he is the only one who cares. From the beginning of the study, he was sent to the patent office. He and Fang Xiran had discussed the situation in case. Because of the importance of this study, fangjishan will naturally attach great importance to it. If Li Yunze made any mistake, it was that he didn''t expect that these people would cover him up so much, even never intervene in the patent submission, and spy on the secret completion of the research. It''s not that he didn''t want to send someone to protect Yining, but when the research was "unsuccessful", what he did more would only provide information to the other party and realize nothing. All care can''t stand an accident, can it? "Let Yining leave, I''ll arrange to send you away..." Li Yunze put forward the conditions. Meng Yi smiled, "do you think I will believe you?" "You can only trust me now!" Li Yunze said, "otherwise, you can''t live without... Meng Yi, it shouldn''t be your ultimate goal to kill the fish and break the net?" Naturally, it is not Meng Yi''s ultimate goal to catch a dead fish and catch a broken net. However, there is no reason to be peaceful in his car. "You come with us, too. When we leave... I''ll naturally let you go." Meng Yi made an offer. He didn''t spend much time here. When Qu Weiwei arrived with he Yining, he couldn''t control Li Yunze. "Do you think I''ll believe you?" "As I told you, you can only trust me." Meng Yi said, his fingers slowly pressing down on the insurance in the back seat of the gun. Li Yunze''s heart suddenly tightened, "OK!" He walked forward, knowing that he was desperate, but he had no way... He had to make sure Yining was absolutely safe. At the same time Qu Weiwei''s car without lights was driving on the road. Looking at the place with lights in front, her smile grew bigger and bigger, "he Yining, you can see Li Yunze right away..." Why Ning slowly opened her eyes and looked at Qu Weiwei. In her eyes, she burst out the firmness under anger that she had never had before. All this is because of her, so... Let her end it! After swallowing hard, why should I rather feel weak after the strength of drug addiction has passed. But women are born with a kind of power. That kind of power will not appear at ordinary times, but will erupt in front of their children and men they love. Whether Qu Weiwei or her kidnappers, they not only want to hurt Yunze, but also want to hurt one by one She won''t allow it. In her hand, she was dragged away by Qu Weiwei and took the fruit knife away from the tea table. She clenched her teeth and slowly got up with all her strength, listening to Qu Weiwei describe the situation to her. "Tut Tut, Li Yunze is about to get on their car... Do you think he will be tortured like you after getting on?" Qu Weiwei was so excited that she didn''t find the back seat of the car at all. He Yining''s hand was cut because he was holding a fruit knife. She tried not to make herself nervous, but when she got up and saw the figure of Li Yunze walking forward, she couldn''t control her tension. Go down with a knife A scream of "ah" came. The car lost control of its direction and began to drift on the road He Yining didn''t stab Qu Weiwei to the point with a knife. She just stabbed her shoulder. She wanted to pull out the knife, but she didn''t have the strength. Qu Weiwei began to resist. The car made a friction sound on the road. Meng Yi and Li Yunze both seemed He Yining looked at the car and saw that it was going to hit Li Yunze, which was likely to cause inertia to hit Li Yunze. He only heard her "ah" scream, grabbed Qu Weiwei''s head and knocked on the steering wheel Qu Weiwei was already a little dizzy in pain and was knocked down again. The whole person was even dizzy. She wanted to step on the brake, but her foot pressed down on the accelerator Why don''t you mind anything else? Pull the steering wheel and look at Meng Yi''s direction with bloodthirsty light. Just at the critical moment, Meng Yi watched the car without lights suddenly coming towards him. Instinctively, he dodged and suddenly pressed down the gun that had opened the insurance With a bang, Zheng Hao was about to get out of the car to see what happened, but suddenly stopped in place. He raised his hand and wiped the side of his neck. There was blood pouring out He tilted his head and looked at Meng Yi outside. The corners of his mouth kept twitching to say something, but he couldn''t speak any more. Just as Li Yunze was approaching the car, he saw the figure of why Yining in the car. His pupils expanded in an instant and roared "Yining". At the same time, there was a loud bang Then, because of inertia and Qu Weiwei has been stepping on the accelerator, why should the car controlled by Ning keep sliding forward against Meng Yi''s car "Yining -" Chapter 1589 Everything is slow, but it happens in a moment. Qu Weiwei''s eyes showed that she died together, although her initial goal was to take Li Yunze with her Everyone must be buried with her. Without Li Yunze and he Yining, her life would not be so tangled. Without Meng Yi, even if she resents, she can''t get to this point She wants them all to die! They''re all dying! But because of why Ning''s sudden attack, everything slightly deviated from the track. Well, why would you rather die in front of Li Yunze? Then, living Li Yunze will only be more painful than dying Qu Weiwei''s foot pressing the accelerator is stepped to the bottom, with enough horsepower to make everything unstoppable. He Yining is also going to die at the moment. She wants to end all this. She wants to kill all the people who spy on brother Yunhao and directly kill brother Yunhao, as well as Li Yunze and 11 who want to kill her! When the car hit Meng Yi, he Yining showed the most real smile in the past three years It''s all over, it''s all over! Why should Ning turn his head? His sight was a little blurred. When Li Yunze roared "Yining", he looked at him The car is still moving. The tires made a harsh friction sound, which made people tremble. Until the "bang" came, the business car was pushed down the road and fell on a slope that was not high, but would make the car roll up due to inertia. "No -" Li Yunze roared, his eyes scarlet, and ran in the direction of the car. He subconsciously wanted to catch the car where he Yining was, but his action was so ridiculous and powerless. Another ''Bang'' sound came, followed by the sound of the vehicle tumbling due to a sudden fall. "Ah --" His lungs burst into tears. His eyes didn''t know what was filled with, and he couldn''t see clearly "Yining, Yining... Yining!" Li Yunze slapped the window and wanted to open the door, but because of the rolling deformation, there was no way to open it, "Yining, you insist, you insist... I won''t let you do anything, I won''t let you do anything... Ah..." Li Yunze lost his calmness, but he had to calm himself. In dark places, vision is blocked everywhere. Li Yunze wiped his eyes and kept saying "Yining, hold on" in his mouth. He went to find a stone and planned to break the window. At the same time Meng Yi said "well" and shook his head as he slowly climbed up on the road. He completely lost consciousness in one leg. Just when he Yining''s car hit him, he wanted to avoid, but he was knocked down a step late, and the car tire was mercilessly pressed off his lower leg. Meng Yi breathed heavily. Under Li Yunze''s lamp, his face was pale and strange because of the collision and rubbing on the asphalt pavement. After looking at the friction marks left on the road due to the tires in front, Meng Yi glanced at the car with fierce eyes, tried to get up, dragged a completely useless leg, and moved his steps regardless of the pain. Suddenly In the distance, a light was faintly projected. Meng Yi looked back, bit his teeth, and accelerated the speed of moving his body... Even that speed is still very slow. Just as Meng Yi got into the car and started, several military vehicles gradually approached. "No. 2 and No. 3 cars are blocked!" Fang Xiran took the walkie talkie and directly ordered, "shoot when necessary!" She didn''t see who was in the car? However, when she came, it was definitely not Li Yunze who had to leave in a hurry. Thinking, Fang Xi ran looked at the military locator in his hand. Li Yunze''s mobile phone signal was still in place, which further showed that the person who wanted to leave didn''t want him. After Fang Xiran''s car stopped, she got out of the car and didn''t worry that the other party could slip away. Looking at the friction marks on the road, Fang Xiran turned his head to one side, hurried to the past, and heard a "bang". Wrinkling his eyebrows, Fang Xiran ordered people to take the emergency light to keep up, and one after another went down the slope quickly. "What''s going on?" Fang Xi ran asked after sweeping two cars. Li Yunze didn''t have time to pay attention to Fang Xiran at all. He just opened the door and didn''t know whether it was syncope or the two people who had lost their lives, Li Yunze closed his eyes and took a deep breath. When he opened it, he didn''t dare to touch too much. Why should he Ning. Fang Xilan also saw he Yining in due time. His eyes suddenly widened and hurried out his mobile phone to call an ambulance "Call Huakang directly and let him pick it up." Li Yunze said with red eyes and gnashing his teeth, and his fingers trembled to he Yining''s breath His hands trembled so much that he didn''t feel his breath for the first time. "No, I won''t..." Li Yunze''s lips also trembled. He kept taking a deep breath and calmed himself down. He took he Yining''s hand and put it on his pulse. The faint pulse was intermittent, but there was still. Li Yunze''s heart seemed to be a little loose. He carefully took he Yining out of the car, gently put it on the ground and took first-aid measures. He has never been lucky at this moment. He is a doctor and a very powerful cardiothoracic doctor. He Yining''s weak breathing eased slightly under Li Yunze''s first aid. Opening her illusory eyes, she looked at Li Yunze''s pale face and fundus of her eyes under the emergency light because of haggard and worry. "Yining, don''t be afraid. Everything is over and will be all right soon!" Li Yunze said, looking at the direction of the slope and thinking about how to bring he Yining up without affecting her injury at the moment. He can''t wait until the ambulance comes, but Yining can''t move under the current situation. "What about research?" Why is Ning weak? When asked, the bloody hand grabbed Li Yunze''s trouser leg. "Nothing, nothing!" Li Yunze looked up at he Yining. "The patent has come down, and Meng Yi didn''t take it away..." he looked at why Yining''s mouth began to overflow blood, and his hand kept wiping, "Yining, everything is all right, everything will be all right, please hold on for me, okay "Fortunately, they... They didn''t... Take away... Take away... Research..." he Yining''s words are intermittent because there is less air intake and more air outlet. Eyelash feather kept trembling. Her pupils gradually relaxed and looked at Li Yunze. The corners of her mouth tried to pull out a smile, but she couldn''t pull it out. Her heart hurts so much that she doesn''t know whether it''s under external force or because she''s leaving. She looked at Li Yunze and tears kept pouring out... He was one of her youth! Why is Li Yunze doing cardiopulmonary resuscitation again? Because he is a doctor, he knows better than anyone. What''s the situation at the moment?! However, few people are willing to face the fact, especially in the face of death! "Yining, will you hold on?" Li Yunze also cried. His voice choked. "I beg you, don''t leave me... Hold on a little longer, okay?" Why do you prefer to breathe shorter and shorter? It seems that as long as you don''t exert yourself, you can''t breathe completely. She is also a doctor. She knows and can even feel the signs that life is passing He Yining looked at Li Yunze''s line of sight, becoming more and more blurred and lax, and there was no focus, "Li Yunze..." she swallowed hard, and her mouth was full of blood, "I''m a little tired..." Chapter 1590 Li Yunze suddenly widened his eyes, "Yining, Yining, don''t sleep... Please, don''t sleep..." his men kept moving, but his face was completely flustered. Looking at such Li Yunze, why Ning''s heart hurts more. Many fragments flashed through her mind. She found that most of her memories were happy in her dead life. Because, in her life, there is a Li Yunze. No matter when he doesn''t like her or when he likes her, because she has such a man, her life has never been meaningless. He Yining cried sadly. She tried to raise her hand to touch Li Yunze''s face, but she couldn''t lift a finger with heavy hands. "Li Yunze..." why did Ning bother to say, "thank you... Thank you... Your love for me..." she gasped, "you, you... You must... Live well... Take good care of... One by one..." In the end, he Yining''s voice was almost inaudible. "Yining, Yining..." Li Yunze stared, and his recovery was faster and faster. "He Yining, if you dare to leave me, I will never forgive you in my life." He Yining died powerlessly, propped his eyelids, looked at Li Yunze''s illusory face, and whispered: "yes... I can''t afford..." "I don''t want to be sorry, I just want you to live, as long as you live!" Li Yunze roared sadly, "he Yining, do you hear me? I just want you to live!" He Yining had no way to speak anymore. She just looked at Li Yunze dimly from the gap of her eyes that had not been closed at last. Li Yunze, if... I know that my love for you will hurt so many people, I will not insist on loving you so much. Sorry, I can''t listen to you again. Hold on. Just like... I couldn''t listen to you and stop loving you. Li Yunze, I''m sorry! One by one, mom is sorry for you Please forgive my cowardice and selfishness. I can''t face life with you again... Because I''m really tired and I want to have a rest! Li Yunze''s voice seemed to be farther and farther away, just like floating from the remote outer space. He Yining only felt that his soul was floating lightly. In his mind, frames of pictures floated by. The first time I met proud Li Yunze, the first time I secretly kissed him, the first time I gave myself to him completely, the first time he held her hand, the first time he called her ''silly Ning'' Also, for the first time, I saw one by one on the B-ultrasound list, kissed one by one on my small face, and cried because I shouted ''Mom'' one by one for the first time. For the first time He Yining gradually fell into the dark silence. For so many first times, she couldn''t aftertaste it. Life always leaves us too many regrets. Unfortunately, people are at a loss and don''t know how to face them. Looking at Fang Ze''s face, he lost his composure completely. "Report to the chief," someone on one side looked at Li Yunze with the same dignified face, "a man in the car was shot in the neck artery and died on the spot. The driver was strongly hit, but there was still breath. In addition, the woman in the car was only unconscious. The specific situation would not be known until she was sent to the hospital." "Yes." Fang Xiran answered, walked forward, grabbed Li Yunze''s shoulder and wanted to give him some strength, "Li Yunze, what..." "She''ll be fine!" Li Yunze roared and looked back at Fang Xiran. His eyes were as aggressive as the injured beast. He kept doing cardiopulmonary resuscitation. He insisted that his silly Ning would stick to it. When the ambulance arrived, the doctor came down with a stretcher and, with the help of the remaining military personnel, sent him to the ambulance in a way that would not hurt he Yining twice The blue light flickered in the night, just like a ghost fire, with a strange smell. Fang Xilan looked at the leaving ambulance and listened to the rustling sound behind him. Someone was sending Qu Weiwei and the driver of the business car to another ambulance. Everyone has the right to live, and the law will let them slowly endure the "chronic poison" given by time in their living years. People live, there is hope. On the contrary, only when people live can they slowly taste the pain. The sound of "hissing" came. Fang Xiran pressed the walkie talkie, and a voice came from inside: "report to the chief, the car is stopped, and the man has been caught alive!" "Yes." Fang Xiran answered, "the military will temporarily detain the team first!" "Yes!" Fang Xiran turned off the walkie talkie and looked at the hole torn by the dawn in the East. Suddenly, he was a little sad. In the new day, there is new hope... Why should Ning and Li Yunze usher in their new hope? ¡­¡­ "Ah" came a crisp sound. One by one, the foot was unstable, and the man slipped down in an instant ¡°Sunshine£¡¡± There was a cry of surprise. When the momentum of being suspended and falling due to the tension of the safety belt one by one, everyone breathed out one after another. One by one, he turned his eyebrows and looked at the "mountain" that was about to reach the top. He was a little annoyed. She almost went up, but fell down! "Sunshine, are you okay?" The teacher in charge of rock climbing asked one by one in silence. Shrugged one by one, pulled the corners of his mouth and nodded, "fortunately, I was just careless." The teacher raised his eyebrow and nodded, "you have a rest first, and then carry out the second group of climbing." "OK." Smiling one by one, he took off his seat belt and went to one side to have a rest. Just, I don''t know why, she felt a little fluffy in her heart, as if something had been lost, which made her very uncomfortable. After looking at the direction of rock climbing one by one, he twisted his small eyebrows and thought that after the training, he would call his father and mother. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. The ambulance pulled the siren all the way to Huakang hospital. The medical staff in the car are doing resuscitation in Yining, which is like a small mobile operating room. Li Yunze called the hospital and said with gnashing teeth: "all the chief doctors gather in the operating room. I mean all... All!" Li Yunze said that the chief physician who was originally on duty to get off work was on standby. After being awakened by the nurse''s hurried phone, the chief physician came one after another "Li Shao, in this case, do you want to enter the operation?" Asked Dr. Li, chief physician of cardiothoracic and pulmonary department. Li Yunze''s hand kept shaking. Now he can''t get the scalpel at all. This is not the biggest problem. The biggest problem is that he doesn''t dare to face the situation at the moment. "I won''t go into the operating room..." Li Yunze swallowed hard, choked in his voice and looked at director Li with scarlet eyes, "but I don''t allow her to have any accidents, do you understand?!" Chapter 1591 Director Li''s face is dignified. Why should he prefer the current situation? He really can''t guarantee anything? In fact, Li Shao himself knows very well that at this moment, he is not a doctor, but his family. He is unwilling to admit it, let alone face it Both director Li and all the chief doctors here know that if we want to achieve the maximum success rate of this operation, Li Yunze must perform the operation himself. However, at the moment, Li Yunze''s state is too stable to face all kinds of situations in the operation. In the operating room, under high tension, it coagulates. After he Yining''s weak heartbeat stopped and recovered several times, after the people involved in the operation looked at each other one after another, they still had to let Li Yunze take the lead. Li Yunze''s mouth kept shaking. He was afraid, he was afraid, he blamed himself... He didn''t know how to face such a situation now. In his ear, Gu Beichen''s voice came. He didn''t know how much he heard, but the fear he had never had in his heart became stronger and stronger. "Yunze, Yining''s last chance is in your hand. Do you believe in yourself?" Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze, who was completely unable to shake his fear from the bottom of his eyes, firmly held his shoulder blade and said, "I believed you could operate on Mo''er with one hand... So why can''t you believe you now? You can do it for Yining!" "I......" Li Yunze''s hand trembled. As a doctor with a scalpel, it''s fatal! "Think about it one by one," Gu Beichen said in a deep voice. "If Yining is gone, one by one will lose her mother. She has no time to have a complete home!" Paused, "she hasn''t come back to Los Angeles for three years. She''s coming back soon. Do you really want to tell her when she comes back that she doesn''t have a mother?" Li Yunze''s mind is a little empty at the moment, but he knows very well that Yining''s chance of surviving now is only thirty or forty percent If he can''t calm himself down and do this operation, Yining won''t even have a chance to survive three or four times. Li Yunze turned and left the operating observation room. Withdraw your clothes, put on your medical robe, clean, disinfect, and enter the operating room Gu Beichen stood in the observation room and looked down at the operating table. Even the substitutes were all the chief doctors. Heart, slightly twisted. Yunze, you can! When Li Yunze raised his eyes and looked over, he firmly nodded to him. The operation was carried out in tension. With the extension of time, it seemed that the gravity in the operating room permeated the whole hospital. "I heard that Li Shao looked very scary at that time. He was covered with blood. I don''t know whether it was his or doctor he?" "Genius came at dawn. What do you mean by such an early morning?" The person on one side shook his head, "Li shaodu didn''t appear in the hospital for two or three days. Was it a car accident that came back from other places?" "It seems not," said a nurse looking at the discussion in the wechat group. "Li Shao seems to be all right. Dr. he is very serious. Now Li Shao has also entered the operating room..." "What are you talking about?" Yanmiao just changed his white coat and came out. He saw what the nurses in the nurse station were talking about. She seems to have heard Li Yunze and Yining? Several nurses knew the relationship between yanmiao and he Yining, and looked at each other one after another. One of them was difficult and hesitated about the car accident. Yan Miao immediately widened his eyes, left a sentence "tell the director that I won''t patrol the room", and hurried to the operation floor. Outside the operating room, the chief doctors and nurses of several departments were on standby. Yanmiao gasped and looked at him. He didn''t care what to ask, so he hurried to the operating observation room. At the moment when the door was opened, a gentle sound of "di -" came from the operating room, followed by the anxious voice of the nurse: "the patient''s heartbeat stopped!" "No, no... no!" Li Yunze and the mad beast, scarlet eyes, "Yining, I won''t let you die... You have to hold on, I won''t let you die... Ah -" In the operating room, there was a roar. At this moment, Li Yunze seemed crazy, but he seemed to have never been calm. Tears blinded his eyes, but his actions were working like crazy, quickly spending the eyes of all the surgeons. If not for the wrong atmosphere at the moment, I''m afraid the chief doctors around the operating table have to sigh that Li Yunze''s technique at the moment is simply amazing. "Yining, you hold on, I hold on..." Li Yunze''s men quickly sutured the micro blood vessels on the heart, "as long as you hold on, as long as you hold on, you can punish me whatever you want..." Li Yunze''s tears and words sour everyone''s heart. Director Li is an old man of Huakang. It can be said that he watched Li Yunze grow up. He knows more or less what happened between him and he Yining. At the moment, one is on the edge of crazy collapse, one is almost silent on the edge of death... After so many years of wandering, it''s not easy to be together, but now I don''t know why, life and death! Director Li didn''t know whether he was old or not, so that his sad eyes moistened when he saw such a scene. "Yining, please, hold on, will you?" "You''ve held on for 7000 days and nights. Even under the difficult circumstances three years ago, you''re still holding on... Do you want to give up now?" "How can you be so selfish? You don''t want me, even one by one?" Li Yunze, while stirring he Yining''s will to survive, kept his men watching his heartbeat under cardiopulmonary resuscitation at any time. "He Yining," Li Yunze saw that under cardiopulmonary resuscitation, he Yining''s heartbeat didn''t move and roared, "can''t you really stick to it for me again?" With scarlet eyes and gnashing teeth, he said, "OK, ok... If you don''t want to insist, if you can''t get down to the operating table, I''ll die with you!" His words fell, stunned all the people in the operating room, looked at him one after another and forgot to respond. Everyone saw that Li Yunze didn''t talk casually. They all saw that if why Ning really died, he might really Suddenly, the automatic door of the operating room opened. Someone looked at it reflexively... He saw Li Jiyuan coming in wearing surgical clothes. "Professor Li." Li Jiyuan nodded slightly, looked at his son who had lost his calmness, and said in a deep voice, "Yining needs you most now. If you can''t calm down, how can Yining stick to it?" Li Yunze looked at Li Jiyuan with red eyes, and his lips kept trembling, "Dad, Yining''s heart has..." Chapter 1592 "The patient''s heart is beating again!" Suddenly, the nurse who observed the instrument shouted in surprise. Li Yunze was stunned for a moment, and then turned his head to the instrument that showed his heartbeat. The curve above is very weak, but it really shows why Ning has recovered his heartbeat Everyone looked at Gu Beichen with joy at this moment, and Li Yunze subconsciously looked up at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen smiled and nodded with him. He didn''t move much, but he was telling him that he had brothers, family and Yunze... You can! Li Jiyuan has arrived at he Yining, took out the semi-finished traditional Chinese medicine he brought in a hurry and put it into he Yining''s mouth. This medicine has not been clinically tested, but now Yining''s situation makes it impossible to finish the operation. He recently studied this medicine with people from the College of traditional Chinese medicine. The only effect is that it can prolong the operation time. Li Jiyuan looked up at Li Yunze and said calmly, "Yunze, Dad believes you, you can..." Li Yunze nodded and took a deep breath. After he Yining''s heartbeat recovered, he continued the operation. Yanmiao lay on the glass, and his lips had lost some blood color because of biting. Yining, come on, you must come on! Your happiness has just begun. How can you give up before you have time to enjoy it? In twenty years, how many days and nights did you really give up? Tears have already covered his sight. Yanmiao''s nose is getting more and more sour. He just feels that his heart is twisted together Gu Beichen seemed very calm from beginning to end, but a pair of ink pupils had already gone deep. He blamed himself. Recently, because Mo''er was going to have a baby, he accompanied Mo''er almost every step and forgot to care about Yunze Clearly know that the research has reached a critical moment. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, and the self reproach at the bottom of his eyes was even worse. He has experienced Mo palace and fallen in Britain. Yunze is just a normal development track. How can he have all the means to face those people? Thinking of this, Gu Beichen painfully closed his eyes. When he was in the most difficult time, Yunze accompanied him. What about him when Yunze was in the most difficult time? Another person entered the observation room. Gu Beichen slowly opened his eyes. The bottom of his eyes was already heavy and violent. "Chen Shao." Xiao Jing shouted and looked at yanmiao. Gu Beichen glanced lightly at the situation of the operating room and said without moving: "wait a minute." "Yes!" Xiao Jing answered and stood silently, watching the ongoing operation. Gu Beichen has been standing there. He wants to ensure that when Li Yunze wants support, he can see him at the first time. That is not only the trust from brothers, but also the support from brothers The operation lasted nearly 20 hours from morning to night. Everyone is tired and paralyzed. If it''s not because of the too tense atmosphere, how many people can''t hold on? At the end of the operation, everyone showed a smile in their eyes. Even if, why rather may not wake up all the time, but at least she is alive now, she has a chance to wait for a miracle, isn''t she? "Yining, thank you!" Li Yunze left with a sour nose. When the surgical suture was cut, his heart missed a beat. He looked at Li Jiyuan and Gu Beichen, who had been waiting. His eyes were completely wet. Yanmiao''s eyes are very red and swollen. After such a long operation, she basically cried for such a long time... She really finished her tears all her life. "That''s nice..." Yan Miao smiled and cried. His eyes swelled badly, but he still couldn''t control it. Gu Beichen patted her on the shoulder, and then turned out of the observation room with one hand. He Yining was sent to the ICU. Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze and said nothing. He just came forward and hugged Li Yunze who didn''t rest for three consecutive days. "Yunze, you''ve done it..." Gu Beichen''s voice was low and filled with joy. He patted Li Yunze on the back and let him go. His eyes were deep to his eyes stained with tears. "Everything will be all right. I can wait, you can too." Li Yunze nodded slightly and wanted to go to ICU. "Stop!" Li Jiyuan just came out. Li Yunze looked back and saw Li Jiyuan''s cold face, "Dad?" "How long haven''t you rested?" Li Jiyuan said in a deep voice, "you are broken. How can you take care of Yining?" Li Yunze didn''t move. He knew he should go to rest now. He also knew that even if he went to ICU, Yining couldn''t wake up at this time. But "Go and rest." Gu Beichen timely said, "only when you wake up can you take better care of Yining, huh?" Li Yunze closed his sour eyes and nodded. Instead of leaving, he went straight to the lounge in the office. Li Yunze sat on the sofa, took his mobile phone and called Fang Xiran. "Why? How''s the situation?" Fang Xiran asked. Li Yunze closed his eyes and said painfully, "I don''t know when I can wake up when I get out of the operating room..." Fang Xi ran was silent and listened to Li Yunze ask, "what''s the situation over there?" "Qu Weiwei and the driver were sent to the general military isolation ward. Meng Yi also caught them. The military temporarily detained them and waited for the police to mention them." Fang Xiran said. Li Yunze slowly opened his eyes. In his red bloodshot eyes, he slowly opened his mouth with hatred: "before sending off, I want to see Meng Yi." Fang Xiran frowned, "Li Yunze, what do you want to do?" "What can I do?" Li Yunze said slowly, "I have to take care of Yining. Naturally, I can''t fight with him with my life!" Fang Xiran knew that what Li Yunze said was true, but he was also very clear about his hatred at the moment. This is a society ruled by law. Although she doesn''t know what Li Yunze is going to do, she also knows that he will not make Meng Yi and them feel better. "Li Yunze, during the transfer from the military to the police, in terms of procedure..." "Don''t tell me about the program." Li Yunze''s voice became cold. "Don''t tell me anything messy. I don''t want to hear it." After a pause, he gritted his teeth and said, "I just want to see Meng Yi." Fang Xiran didn''t speak. After a long silence, he said, "Li Yunze, you''re a doctor!" "So what?" Li Yunze sneered. Just as he said this, he stood on the rooftop and looked at the ink stained night sky. Gu Beichen slowly said, "Yunze is a doctor." Xiao Jing''s face was dignified. He went to Xiao Yu and Xiao Qiang in the morning and found out what had happened these two days Contacted Fang Xi, and then knew exactly what happened. In fact, Li Shao''s overt and covert behavior is no problem. But sometimes, nothing can hold an accident "He''s a doctor. Those hands can only save people." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes are gradually deep, just like ink space, can''t find the edge, "just use the way he wants to use... I''ll deal with the aftermath for him!" Chapter 1593 Fang Xiran rubbed her swollen temples, because to cooperate with Li Yunze''s arrest, she had not slept for two days, and her whole face was capitalized with "fatigue"! "Li Yunze, you know, no!" Fang Xiran refused. Although she doesn''t know what Li Yunze wants to do, as a medical genius, she can guess what he wants to do without thinking. First of all, she can''t break the law. Secondly... As a friend, she can''t let Li Yunze make fun of herself. Yes! The ability of the Li family is deeply rooted in Los Angeles, not to mention Gu Beichen and Lin Nannan behind Li Yunze. But even if he escaped the shackles of the law, what about his heart? He will violate his medical ethics and be tortured by himself in the years to come. He will no longer be the willful and proud medical genius. "Forget it, let''s talk about it later!" Li Yunze''s voice is hoarse because of fatigue, which is a direct response of physical function. "Everything will be all right." Fang Xiran said again. "Yes." Li Yunze answered and hung up. He was physically tired, but he didn''t feel sleepy at all. He closed his eyes and slightly relieved the pain in his eyes. Li Yunze opened his eyes and got up. When the talent left the office, he saw Li Jiyuan coming, "Dad..." "Isn''t it for you to rest?" Li Jiyuan said in a deep voice. "Oh, I''m a little hungry. Go and have something to eat." Li Yunze said casually. Li Jiyuan looked at Li Yunze with deep eyes. At one glance, he saw that his son was lying under the strong support, but unfortunately, he didn''t have the heart to pierce him. "I didn''t eat either. Shall I go with Yunze?" Li Jinxi came from behind at the right time. Li Yunze looked back and frowned slightly. "As soon as I got off the plane and heard about Yining, I rushed over," Li Jinxi said. "I just went to see Yining, and all the data are normal." After more than three years of repair, now Li Jinxi, at least on the surface, has lost the depression when she just had a miscarriage and knew that Chen Yu was the Chen family, and exudes the breath of her queen''s general attack. Li Yunze sighed and nodded without speaking. "Dad, go and have a rest. Yunze and I will go and have something to eat." Li Jinxi said, exchanging eyes with Li Jiyuan. Li Jiyuan nodded, looked at a pair of dragon and Phoenix fetuses immersed in pain because of their eldest son, and sighed quietly. Sitting in the hospital canteen, Li Jinxi looked at the thin and haggard Li Yunze. Where is there a little original beauty? "You haven''t eaten or slept for days?" Li Jinxi asked. "Two or three days..." Li Yunze drank saliva, his mouth was completely bitter, and the water he drank was the same as the traditional Chinese medicine he drank. "I couldn''t help it before. Now you have to take good care of yourself." Li Jinxi pushed a bowl of porridge to Li Yunze, "anyway, Yining still needs you." Li Yunze nodded and began to eat without saying anything. Even if the porridge is hard to swallow. They ate silently for a while. Li Yunze looked up at Li Jinxi and asked, "how are you and Chen?" Li Jinxi was stunned. He didn''t know how Li Yunze was still in the mood to take care of her and Chen Yu. However, thinking of diverting his attention, he said faintly, "fortunately, sometimes time will really kill a lot..." paused, "in fact, I''m a little unreasonable. After all, big brother''s business is serious and has nothing to do with him." "Well, if only you understand." 22715 5138 11290 15562 27983 23724 7343 14459 1656 25999 31412 25113 1980 7752 30847 27221 6873 15650 7343 9070 5414 25113 5380 5414 4456 26155 8515 7343 13817 25113 3997 28326 16529 15842 2680 22693 2650 21410 Li Jinxi frowned slightly and felt that Li Yunze was a little strange. But he didn''t think much. He just thought it was because he didn''t want her to miss and lose, so he regretted it. "In fact, we have been much better recently." Li Jinxi lowered his eyes and smiled. "All Chen Yu''s free time is used to stick to me. Even if it''s an iceberg, it''s estimated that it''s covered by him." "That''s good..." Li Yunze looked up at Li Jinxi. He could see that Jin Xi''s happiness came from his heart. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen and Xiao Jing leave the rooftop and return to Jianmo. Xiao Jing takes Susan away from Huakang and goes back to rest. Jian Jie has already slept in another bed, and his little hand is still on the small bed beside him. In that way, he is full of possessiveness. J sits beside the small bed, looking at the book, and occasionally looks at the little princess sleeping Jian Mo slept relatively shallow. When she heard something moving, she almost looked at Gu Beichen with J. "Back?!" Jane Mo smiled from the corners of her mouth. Gu Beichen nodded, walked over and gently stroked Jian Mo''s head. After kissing her on the forehead, he asked, "do you want to eat something?" Jane Mo shook her head. "Mom ate it before she left." Paused, "what''s the matter with Yunze?" "Nothing." Gu Beichen sat down and didn''t want to bother Jian Mo, who had just given birth to a little princess, "it''s all over." "Oh." Jane nodded. "Would you like to have a rest?" Gu Beichen smiled, gently rubbed Jian Mo''s cheek with his thick finger belly and said, "I''m not tired. You look at me and don''t feel sleepy. I''ll talk with you for a while, huh?" Jane Mo smiled and nodded. When Xiaojie was born, although there was Jun Li around him, he was not the man he really wanted to be with him. When she lost Xiao Yan, at that moment, Jian Mo just wanted Gu Beichen to be with her, but there was no way to achieve it This time, President Gu accompanied her all the way. She was really happy and warm. No matter how strong a woman is, she also hopes to have a man who occasionally makes herself coquettish and a shoulder to rely on, doesn''t she?! J is used to Gu Beichen and Jian Mo taking meat hemp as fun. He puts down his book, lies on the edge of the small bed, looks at the little princess, and suddenly reaches out his hand Hee hee, her face is not as big as his palm. It''s amazing! In the room, the light is soft and the breath is full of peace under the warmth. J suddenly thought, if Jane Mo is in the Mo palace and the child is still there, what is the situation now? Well, that kid won''t rob the little princess with him, will he? Star, who is called "kid" by J, is rubbing his eyes with his little hands. He is very sleepy, but he just doesn''t sleep. "Star, I''m going to sleep after drinking the milk..." Qingqing handed star the bottle. Star''s pretty little face is wrinkled. Look at Qingqing. He doesn''t talk or answer the bottle. Qingqing sighed softly, "can''t you let Qingqing sleep with you today?" Star tooted his mouth. There was a ruthless refusal in his beautiful eyes. His voice was soft and waxy, but he said firmly, "want a stone!" Chapter 1594 Qingqing immediately shriveled her mouth and looked unwilling. Why is the gap between people so large? Mingming star''s memory will be refreshed every day, but why has he always relied on Qin Shao and been so "indifferent" to her? She is also the person star has been with since childhood unfair! She can play with her during the day and never want her at night, even if she is sleepy like this. When there was no "amnesia" before, Star asked her to coax her to sleep The more you think about it, the more you feel overwhelmed. Star looks at Qingqing innocently. The little guy wisely feels her unhappiness... But he still wants a stone! Qingqing looked at star, sighed, looked at the time, and wondered whether to find qinshao. It''s not over yet. The door of the bedroom is pushed open Just as Qingqing looked back, star''s eyes suddenly brightened and his voice was soft, waxy, sweet and greasy, so he shouted, "stone!" "I knew you didn''t sleep." Shi Shaoqin obviously sighed helplessly in his tone, but obviously, he was more spoiled. Coming forward, he picked up star in one hand, took the bottle in Qingqing''s hand in the other hand, and said faintly, "go down." "Oh!" Qingqing looks jealous at the soft look of star in Shi Shaoqin''s arms and leaves with a stuffy heart. Star was already very sleepy. In Shi Shaoqin''s arms, a quarter of a bottle of milk had not been drunk, and he was already asleep. Shi Shaoqin looked softly at the little guy, gently took the bottle out of his mouth, and after a while, put him on the small bed. "We star have a sister," Shi Shaoqin said with a gentle finger across star''s soft face and a shallow smile on his good-looking lips. "If you have a chance, stone will take you to see your sister, huh?" Star answered Shi Shaoqin''s, only breathing evenly after falling asleep. But even so, it softened Shi Shaoqin''s sight However, gradually, the softness of the fundus became a touch of helplessness. Jane Mo''s placenta came back, but Xi Cheng said it was useless for star. What could be used should be the placenta when star was born. With a slight sigh, Shi Shaoqin covered star with a quilt again. Just about to get up, his mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. Slightly invisible, he frowned slightly. Shi Shaoqin looked at star''s sleeping face and got up. When he got out of the bedroom, he picked up Listening to the report inside, Shi Shaoqin looked slightly cold and asked, "finally, what happened?" "Yes, but people were caught before the information was taken out of Los Angeles." The Los Angeles official said, "something happened, that is, after our people withdrew to Miss Jane''s side." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes fell faintly out of the window and looked at the sunflower field in the shape of waves blown by the wind at night. "He is also a personal figure. He hasn''t given up for so many years." Paused, "it''s just a pity..." Meng Yi is a famous reseller in the dark world. He may not often have news and things in his hand, but what he can sell is big goods. Such a person is not greedy for small and cheap, but also calm... The most important thing is that he is not willing to invest because he can''t get a return for a time, which is doomed to be more popular in the "industry" than other resellers. Unfortunately, no one can really count as no size. According to Li Yunhao''s research, how many people in the dark world have red eyes? If his attention wasn''t on Beichen at that time, I''m afraid there wouldn''t be so many things in the future I''ve lost so many years. Meng Yi is still thinking about it. "Now that it''s over, let them handle it by themselves!" Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth lightly and said slowly, "Gu Beichen is not a fuel-efficient lamp either." If he is now a man who has completely fallen into darkness, Beichen is a man with sunshine around him but another hand stirring in the darkness. ¡­¡­ After eating with Li Yunze, Li Jinxi watched him enter the office before turning around and leaving. Before leaving, he explained to the nurse. Li Yunze didn''t leave this time. He lay on the bed with a rest room in the office and closed his eyes. Xu was so tired that he crushed his nerves and Li Yunze fell asleep. This sleep, he slept directly until dawn. After getting up, Li Yunze went to the ICU first, personally inspected he Yining and looked at the instruments again. Just after the examination, yanmiao pushed the door and came in. Because she cried too much yesterday, her eyes are as red and swollen as goldfish eyes today, and some can''t see. "Didn''t you apply it?" Li Yunze asked. "Wait." Yanmiao also slept in the hospital last night and didn''t go back. "I''ll come and have a look at Yining?" "Everything is normal." While Li Yunze answered, he stood at the visiting window and looked at he Yining surrounded by various instruments. His fundus emotion was complex and completely unclear. "It will get better..." yanmiao also looked at he Yining, who looked lifeless. As soon as he spoke, his nose became sour uncontrollably. "It''ll be all right." Li Yunze spoke softly. He didn''t know whether to give yanmiao confidence or to himself. Li Yunze stayed in ICU for a while before leaving. He didn''t go back to the office and went directly to the pharmacy. "Li Shao..." the man in the pharmacy said hello. "Yes." Li Yunze responded faintly, and walked over the man and into the place where the prescription drugs were placed. The man in the pharmacy sighed and continued to tidy up the medicine. Li Yunze took several kinds of medicine and left immediately, and went directly to the small laboratory set up in the hospital. "Li Shao looks something wrong?" The people in the lab looked puzzled. The person on one side looked at Li Yunze, who entered the independent experimental area, and glanced sideways at the person who spoke, "what''s wrong with doctor he? Is it wrong that Li Shaoneng is right?" The person who spoke before was stunned. Thinking about it, he shrugged his shoulders to help himself. Li Yunze took medical gloves and quickly decomposed the medicine taken out from the pharmacy and fused it into the reagent tube. However, in an hour or two, a new bottle of medicine was in his hand. Li Yunze looked at the medicine in his hand and looked at the liquid medicine with some turbidity and floating medicine foam. Gradually, he deepened his sight. Since Fang Xiran can''t help it, he will make Meng Yi comfortable for a few more days and wait until he gets to prison Li Yunze thought. When he slowly grasped the medicine into his hand, his face was shocked. "I swear: I will do my best to take medical measures that I think are beneficial to the patient, and will not bring pain and harm to the patient. I will not give the poison to anyone, nor will I encourage others to use it. I will practice medicine and live in innocence..." On the day of entering the medical school, all medical students took an oath in the auditorium of the medical school, and he stood in the front as the student representative. The year he Yining entered the school, he was the senior who led them to take the oath Li Yunze''s eyes gradually turned scarlet, and there was anger and hatred in the bottom of his eyes. At this moment, even if the oath as a doctor crossed his mind, he could not dispel the pain caused by the pain accumulated in his heart. Chapter 1595 Chu Zixiao puts Gu Ci''s Stewed soup aside and looks at Gu Beichen I make complaints about Beichen''s meticulous change of diapers to the little princess. J and Jane''s face on the side of the two face are totally disliked and sometimes Tucao sentences. "For what?" Gu Beichen looked calm. "It''s my daughter to fight again." After a pause, he looked at the older and younger people who just wanted to say "it''s my niece" and "it''s my sister", and gently opened his thin lips, "when you grow up, marry your wife and have a baby by yourself!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± J and Jane both twitched at the corners of their mouths. "Gu Beichen, didn''t you just say you still have something to do? Why don''t you go?" J dislikes face. Jian Jie also wrinkled his small nose. As he grew older, his little handsome face, which had some baby fat, became more and more handsome. "Dad, do you think it''s appropriate for you to talk to me about getting married and having children now?" After returning home for a few years, Jian Jie has gradually changed the names of Jian Mo and Gu Beichen. Xu Shi feels that shouting "father and mother" will be more cordial than daddy and Mommy. Xu Shi feels that he is now shouldering the mission of two children and should love his parents more. Well, and I love my sister more. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Jie lightly. He swaddled the little princess first and then spoke calmly: "I don''t think things on the normal development route of life need to be avoided." Jian Mo couldn''t help laughing when she saw Gu Beichen''s serious "nonsense". Although she felt that such questions should not avoid children, let them have excessive curiosity and try something. But President Gu now made it clear that he was fooling Jianjie and J''s attention and "tossing" the little princess for a while. Chu Zixiao also laughed and sat down on one side. "Beichen was with the child for the first time. He did a good job." With that, he opened the soup pot and poured out a bowl of soup. In due time, Gu Beichen turned around and took the soup bowl to feed Jian mo. Basically everything is done by yourself. Now Gu Beichen, who has become the shopkeeper, has only one job to accompany Jian Mo and the little princess "You don''t have anything else to do. Go and be busy!" Jane said after eating. Gu Beichen glanced at Chu Zixiao lightly and knew in his heart that even if he was going to have a baby, the little woman who was still worrying about Zixiao and Zhang Nian disliked him and prevented her from understanding things. "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, put down the soup bowl and looked at Chu Zixiao, "you stay with Mo''er for a while!" Chu Zixiao nodded, looked at Gu Beichen and smiled, "now he''s sticking to you. You dislike it." Jian Mo and Chu Zixiao looked at each other and said with a smile, "that''s when she knows I want to gossip." After a pause, her face straightened, "there were many people yesterday, and I didn''t bother to ask, Zixiao, what happened to you and Zhang Nian that night?" Referring to Zhang Nian, Chu Zixiao frowned slightly and invisibly. Jane Mo also frowned, "aren''t you happy?" Chu Zixiao shook his head, "I didn''t see anyone." Paused, "I only learned yesterday that she received a call from the hospital on her way here. Suddenly, her mother was not in good condition and went back." "What a coincidence?" Jane Mo''s eyebrows tightened more. "Is her mother okay?" "It''s all right." Chu Zixiao''s voice sounded very calm, as if there were no big waves. But Jian Mo still knows him, "Zixiao, if you are really interested, try to work hard." "I''m just afraid of hurting..." Chu Zixiao''s voice was a little strange and heavy. At the beginning, how many detours did his efforts make Momo and Beichen take? Besides, Xiao Yan is also a tragedy under his "efforts". Jane Mo was silent and knew that her affair had become a trouble for Zixiao. "But are you willing to stop trying?" Jane Mo asked, "moreover, not every relationship will develop in the opposite direction, nor every relationship. Only a good beginning can have a good ending, can''t it?" Once she and Zixiao were such a beautiful beginning, but the end was sudden. And she and President Gu had a bad start, and now she has gained happiness. "Zixiao, try again." Jane Mo''s mouth was filled with an encouraging smile. "Happiness is for ourselves. We can take no longer hurt as the premise." Chu Zixiao''s sight of Shang Jian Mo, inexplicably, seemed to be encouraged by his lost and retreating heart ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen didn''t leave the hospital and went directly to Li Yunze''s office. no one. "Chen Shao!" The head nurse said hello. "Where''s Yunze?" Gu Beichen asked. The head nurse subconsciously looked at the direction of the office and then said, "Oh, I went to the pathology room at that time. It seems that Li Shao went to the research room." Gu Beichen frowned slightly, nodded and turned to the research room. With a ''ding'', the elevator arrived at the floor. Gu Beichen stepped out of the elevator almost at the moment when the elevator door opened, and kept walking. He turned and walked in the direction of the research room Halfway through, Li Yunze came out of the research room filled with treacherous hostility. Gu Beichen stopped and waited. When the eagle''s eyes were slightly cold, his sight dropped slightly and fell on the hand held by Li Yunze. The ink pupil was deep. "You come with me!" Gu Beichen said, and the man had turned around. Li Yunze paused, put the things in his hand into his pocket, and followed Gu Beichen to the roof. Huakang hospital covers a very wide area. It has the best medical facilities, the best chief doctors of various departments and the best medical environment Standing on the rooftop and overlooking the hospital, I don''t think I''m in the hospital. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed gradually, with a breath of horror. Li Yunze stood behind him and didn''t speak. He just looked at Gu Beichen''s back quietly and frowned slightly. Neither of them spoke. They were brothers of the same year and only a few months apart. They grew up together and couldn''t be familiar with each other anymore. There was no secret. Because of this, they know something about each other. Gu Beichen''s eyes crossed complex emotions, more of which was guilt. After a while, Gu Beichen slowly turned around and touched his hand, "bring it!" Two words, full of domineering indisputable. "What?" Li Yunze''s voice was calm and light. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes narrowed slightly, but he didn''t speak. Li Yunze glanced lightly at Gu Beichen''s hand, where there was a cocoon that shouldn''t belong to him. It was left by Mo palace and under the downfall of England. The air around him will freeze for a second, so he will wait for the next second. "If it''s all right, I''ll go down and have a look at Yining." Li Yunze''s face was still calm, and he turned and wanted to go at the same time. The breath of strong wind came from behind. Li Yunze hasn''t reacted yet. Gu Beichen has pushed him against the ventilation platform on one side Chapter 1596 The sound of "Oh" came when Li Yunze''s body suddenly reached the edge of the ventilator. He instinctively wanted to push Gu Beichen away, but because Gu Beichen had one arm across his neck, he couldn''t move against him. Li Yunze didn''t speak, but his eyes were suddenly filled with fierce looking at Gu Beichen. It was a kind of wild beast''s eyes after going crazy, completely attacking. Gu Beichen doesn''t pay attention to Li Yunze at all. Maybe neither of the two people can get good before, but after he left the Mo palace, Li Yunze is not his opponent at all. "Li Yunze, do you know what you''re doing?" Gu Beichen asked, gnashing his teeth. Li Yunze clenched his teeth tightly and didn''t speak. He stared at Gu Beichen and forbeared his angry eyes. He looked completely crazy. Gu Beichen''s breathing also became heavy. He knew that Yunze couldn''t swallow it and what he wanted to do So when he heard that others were in the research room, even if he didn''t see anything and asked nothing, he knew what Yunze had done? It''s too simple for Yunze to take a dose of medicine that will keep people from dying, slow organ atrophy or catch any virus, and slowly bear the pain and suffering! However, once his hands are contaminated with these bad things, his achievements in this life will stop here. Since then, his hands can no longer develop drugs to save people Li Yunze''s body began to tremble slightly because of his anger. It was a prelude to explosion, "Gu Beichen, let me go!" Every word is squeezed out of the clenched teeth. "Have you thought about Yining?" Gu Beichen gritted his teeth and roared, "she''s using her life to protect her brother''s research. What are you doing? Ah?" Li Yunze''s original crazy mood was completely stunned by Gu Beichen''s words. "Yunze, you make Yining wake up. How to face such a you?" Gu Beichen asked, "is this you the Li Yunze she has loved for 20 years? Ah?" Li Yunze''s breathing began to become rapid. Looking at Gu Beichen''s line of sight, he also wandered, "I..." "You can destroy yourself." Gu Beichen directly took strong medicine, "but you ruined Yining''s faith." He stared at Li Yunze and said, "Yining''s guilt, Yining''s persistence, and Yining''s desire to repay... Do you want to break her, huh?" Li Yunze breathed heavily. He looked at Gu Beichen''s line of sight and his eyes began to turn scarlet. The whole person didn''t know how to collapse because of sadness. "Beichen, I''m really sad..." at this moment, the breath on Li Yunze completely collapsed, and the anger bulging all over disappeared. At the moment, the whole person seemed to lose support. "I''m really afraid, so I''d rather not stick to it." He hung his head, his eyes drifting from side to side, so powerless. "I told all the patients'' families that as long as they insist, miracles will happen, and they should not give up hope..." Li Yunze cried, and his face under tears was completely self mocking, "but I know better than anyone that the probability is pitiful." He raised his eyes and looked at Gu Beichen with red eyes. "Yining''s current situation may leave me at any time because the life body is too weak... Do you know?" "Yunze," Gu Beichen slowly released his arm against Li Yunze, "Zixiao can wake up, Mo''er can wake up, I believe... Yining can also!" "Is that ok?" Li Yunze asked tremblingly. In his eyes, he was eager for Gu Beichen to give him a positive answer. Gu Beichen nodded, "she has loved you for so many years. How can she be willing to stop at the last step? And one by one, she loves her so much, how can she be willing to leave?" Li Yunze''s teeth were rattled because he was trembling. Gu Beichen''s firm eyes were like a driftwood in the sea, which calmed Li Yunze down gradually. "Give it to me." Gu Beichen leaned out his hand again. Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen and didn''t move. Under Gu Beichen''s slight sign in his eyes, he mechanically took out the potion and put it heavily into his hand. Gu Beichen looked at the eye drops and Li Yunze. He poured them out in front of him. Only when he destroyed the harmful potion in front of Li Yunze and helped him do what he wanted to do, would he have no burden. ¡­¡­ Mo palace. Shi Shaoqin took star''s small hand and walked on the beach in the morning light. People in Mo Palace are not surprised at such a scene now. "Hold it!" Star was a little tired after walking for a while. She looked up at Shi Shaoqin in a coquettish way and looked hungry on her face. Shi Shaoqin didn''t say anything. He leaned over and picked up star. Qingqing looked at her from a distance. She didn''t know what she muttered, and her face was lost. "What''s the matter?" Shi juechi came over and looked at the big and small in the distance. The corners of his mouth couldn''t help laughing. "Children really are the purest existence in the world. Even if there is no memory, they can instinctively feel the closest people." "Jue Shao," Qingqing had a feeling of being hit by 10000 points. "You''re spreading salt on my wound." Shi Jue Chi was stunned, reacted, smiled and said, "I didn''t eat star''s vinegar, but you ate Shaoqin''s." Qingqing shrugged and looked ahead. She didn''t know what Shi Shaoqin had said. Star, who smiled happily, said, "actually, I''m worried about star. In this way, Qin Shaoqin..." She tried to stop talking, but Shi juechi understood what she said. "Don''t worry, Shaoqin won''t allow anyone to treat star." Shi juechi looked at the figure in front of him and slowly opened his mouth. He said with some meaning, "it''s not easy to get the sunshine. How can he allow others to cover up the light he finally got?" Shi juechi gently fanned his eyes and looked at Shi Shaoqin and star''s eyes gradually blurred. Maybe star and Mo Palace are destined. Whether he left with Mo Mo at the beginning and found her pregnant, or later when he was in the Mo palace, Mo Mo left traces When a touch of light wants to pour into Shaoqin''s heart, it is a trace of fate. Star subconsciously played with the blue agate tied to his other wrist, just like his dependence on Shi Shaoqin. When he was bored, it became his habitual action. ¡°Star£¡¡± "Yes!" Star responded with a soft waxy voice. Shi Shaoqin glanced at star''s action of playing with blue agate, smiled and said, "do you want to go around?" "Turn around!" Star''s eyes lit up and pointed to the sunflower. Shi Shaoqin smiled. "It''s to leave the Mo palace for a walk." Star tilted his head and didn''t understand the definition outside the Mo palace. He just asked softly, "is the stone going?" "Of course." Shi Shaoqin smiled. Star''s eyes lit up and nodded immediately, "turn around!" Shi Shaoqin''s smile became softer. He walked with star in his arms. It was still quiet and good in years. However, without taking a few steps, the mobile phone vibrated in the pocket, disturbing such softness. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and took out his mobile phone. Seeing that it was Gu Beichen, he frowned immediately. Put down star, "go find Qingqing first, huh?" "Yes." Star looked at the mobile phone in Shi Shaoqin''s hand, nodded sweetly and went to Qingqing''s side. Seeing that star had gone farther, Shi Shaoqin answered the phone. Unlike the softness and indifference he had just given to star, Shi Shaoqin scratched a disdainful light on his face, "huh?" Chapter 1597 "Send me a ''happy water''." Gu Beichen spoke directly, completely ignoring Shi Shaoqin''s disgust. Shi Shaoqin suddenly frowned, "what do you want that for?" There was a trace of gloom in the words asked. Gu Beichen was silent and then sneered, "what do I want this for, you won''t know?" "Well, you''re going to accompany me." Shi Shaoqin seemed to deliberately disgust Gu Beichen, and his voice was clear. "..." Gu Beichen frowned lightly. He was disgusted by Shi Shaoqin''s appearance of knowing but deliberately pretending to be confused. The voice of "Dudu Dudu" suddenly came. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were frozen. At the same time, his eyebrows frowned slightly, and the corners of his beautiful mouth raised a comfortable smile with a touch of pride. After Gu Beichen hung up the phone, he stood on the rooftop and looked at the distance. The cool and handsome face is so indifferent that I can''t see the slightest expression. "What do you want ''happy water''?" Suddenly, J''s voice came from behind. Gu Beichen glanced back without changing his face, took back his sight and didn''t speak. J frowned and walked forward. He just followed Gu Beichen up curiously. Unexpectedly, he had to use a poison like "happy water"? Gu Beichen didn''t take care of J''s curious sight or solve his doubts, as if he was waiting for something. Just when J wanted to ask again, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone vibrated on the isolation platform in front of him. Drooping his eyes, his sight fell, Gu Beichen looked at the string of unmarked numbers, and his thin lips raised a touch of pride. "Qin Shao?!" J also saw the number. "Yes." After Gu Beichen faintly answered the voice, he picked up his mobile phone and answered, "why? I just didn''t like it. I''m going to take the initiative to give it now?" "Mo''er seems to have just given birth?" Shi Shaoqin heard a faint voice. Gu Beichen sneered and said sarcastically, "Shi Shaoqin, I''m afraid this matter won''t be much staggered than when I ushered in the little princess?" "Indeed." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was very weak, but it showed that he was confident and fearless. A complete sense of vision, ''I just arranged people around Jian Mo, how can you drop me?''. "Hum." Gu Beichen snorted coldly, just an emotional expression. J thinks Gu Beichen won. Now he could imagine how dark Qin Shao''s face was? Gu Beichen made it clear that he can only stare at you in the dark. My wife is always my wife. Look at me and my wife kissing, don''t you worry? J thought and nodded, especially agreeing with his own ideas. The fact is that Shi Shaoqin''s face is really black at the moment. If it weren''t for his proud "demeanor", I''m afraid he hung up right now. However, hanging up the phone means that he understands Gu Beichen''s ridicule and admits it, so he becomes angry with shame. Shi Shaoqin will not let Gu Beichen succeed in such a thing. The two men were so silent that no one hung up and no one spoke. J is a little impatient. He just holds his hand. He has sat on the table and wonders who can''t hold back Gu Beichen and Qin Shao first. Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin are both very patient people. It can be seen from the fact that they can be strong in front of death. Once such two people are matched, they need not only IQ, but also patience. Unfortunately, no matter how powerful a person is, once he has a weakness, all his strengths will collapse. For example, at this moment Shi Shaoqin heard Qing Qing''s voice behind him: "Qin Shaoqin is busy!" Suddenly frowning, Shi Shaoqin turned and looked away, as if some angry little guy was holding a sunflower plate that was not too big and should not have sunflower seeds, so he ran to him. The light in his eyes gradually deepened, and Shi Shaoqin said coldly, "Gu Beichen, it''s really interesting for you to play in order to let me take the initiative to help you?" "Yes!" Gu Beichen smiled, "will you help or not?" "Hum!" What Shi Shaoqin left Gu Beichen was also a tone word, and then hung up the phone. Listening to the hang up sound in the mobile phone, Gu Beichen''s smile became deeper and deeper, and a pair of ink pupils were as deep as the sea. "Alas..." J looked at Gu Beichen, shook his head, sighed and jumped off the table. As he walked back, he seemed to sigh, "I feel sorry for Qin for less than three seconds... Because a woman who can''t get is restrained by that woman''s man. What evil is this?" Gu Beichen looked back at J, who was already very tall, and took back his sight and fell on the hospital. He wants "happy water" is just the beginning. As Shaoqin said, he doesn''t want to do it himself. Some things, the means of the dark world, are better How many people in the dark world can play better than Shi Shaoqin? Gu Beichen converged his eyes and turned to walk under the roof It''s not that he doesn''t want to do it himself, but sometimes, resentment and self blame can only heal the ethereal wound if the enemy''s pain is dying. ¡­¡­ Star angrily looked at Shi Shaoqin with the sunflower plate, but did not speak. He was just unhappy in his black and bright eyes. Shi Shaoqin slightly twisted his eyebrows, squatted down and took the flower plate handed by star, looked at the root, "it should be broken by the wind." Star is still unhappy. Shi Shaoqin picked up star and said as he walked, "star, no matter how powerful a man is, he can''t make the whole world surrender to his feet, because we can''t control what nature gives between heaven and earth." Star lay on Shi Shaoqin''s shoulder and didn''t speak. Little he just looked at the broken sunflowers and felt very sad. Shi Shaoqin knows that he doesn''t understand what he says to star now. Even if he does, he will forget when he wakes up. However, he doesn''t seem to feel bored. He often repeats the same words just to make the little guy subconsciously understand that... The need to be strong doesn''t mean that a person can be strong enough to feel invincible in the world. If you don''t think of danger, how can you think of retreat and change? Once a person is arrogant and complacent enough to really think he is invincible, he is basically not far from failure and death. Shi Shaoqin is a man who knows how to think of danger, retreat and change. Therefore, the strength of Mo palace is not accidental. Why does Xiao Mu wait until star is ten years old to take him to XK? It is precisely because a child with a good "education" from childhood is easier to succeed and will not be complacent because of success. "Master Xiao, I have found it." Xiao Mu slowly stopped and glanced at the reporter. His face was always calm and shallow with a smile, "what do you say?" The reporter raised his body with a slight bow, smiled and said, "Lord Xiao offered him such good conditions, how can he not accept it?" He paused. "He said that he would make the medicine Lord Xiao wanted for one year at most." Chapter 1598 Los Angeles. Li Yunze rubbed his swollen temples. When he closed his eyes and opened them again, he put a food box in front of him. When he saw Fang Xiran, he frowned slightly and said in a dull voice, "coming Fang Xiran glanced at he Yining with various instruments in his eyes. In his mind, he uncontrollably thought of the scene that Li Yunze almost collapsed at the time of the car accident and why Ning Si had no desire to survive. Both soldiers and doctors should be able to bear the injury and death. But often encounter such a scene, the heart is holding pain. Patting Li Yunze on the shoulder, Fang Xiran sat down on one side and said, "major Jin is expected to be back in the evening." "Yes." Li Yunze answered faintly, opened the food box and began to eat. Looking at Li Yunze''s rude way of eating, Fang Xilan knew that he had no appetite at all. He swallowed it whole, just to supplement himself. "I''m afraid..." Fang Xi paused and said with a deep sigh, "but I can''t hide it sooner or later." "Yes." Li Yunze was just a faint word. Fang Xiran looked at Li Yunze with some worry. "Hey, Li Yunze, don''t you express something?" Li Yunze stopped eating and swallowed a mouthful of rice hard before looking at Fang Xiran and said, "what are you talking about?" He laughed at himself. "I didn''t take good care of Yining. He should beat me." The chopsticks in his hand turned because of covering up his sadness. When Li Yunze''s Adam''s apple rolled, a touch of self mockery crossed the corner of his mouth, "Fang Xiran, I''ve never been so glad of my original decision." He tilted his head to the visiting window and his eyes fell on he Yining''s quiet face. "I have a marriage certificate with her. In this life, no matter how you want to escape or how you want it, she is my wife and I am always her husband!" Fang Xiran nodded and smiled. "Seriously, I''m glad you''re husband and wife." Li Yunze looked sideways at Fang Xiran, saw a touch of astringency across the corner of her mouth, and understood what she meant. If he doesn''t have such a relationship with Yining, Jin shaosi is likely to forcibly take Yining away this time Even if he won''t allow it! However, if they exist alone, what rights do they have not to allow? Both he and Fang Xiran seemed a little embarrassed. ¡­¡­ "Mom, do you feel any discomfort?" Zhang Nian, while packing up the food, paid attention to Yang Yi''s question. Yang Yi smiled and shook her head. "Mom is much better. Go and help yourself!" "No hard support!" Zhang nianyi was terrified at the thought of the situation the night before yesterday. She waited outside the emergency room. She didn''t want to bear the weakness and fear again. Yang Yi looked at her daughter painfully, took her hand and gently kneaded it. She sighed with relief, "Niannian, mom is fine..." she paused. "Living in the hospital, there will be no accident. You used to be a nurse, so you shouldn''t doubt the nursing ability of the nurses here." Zhang Nian smiled and nodded "Hmm". "Well, go and be busy!" Yang Yi let go of Zhang Nian''s hand. "Isn''t Dr. Qiao on duty tonight? You should be more relieved with him." Speaking, Yang Yi''s vision was ambiguous. "Mom..." Zhang Nian was helpless. "I have nothing to do with him!" She paused as if afraid of her mother. She took the bag on the stool and said, "Mom, I''ll be busy first." "Well, ok... Be careful on the way." "I see, mom!" Zhang Nian and Yang Yi waved their hands, and they were out of the ward. Yang Yi sighed and looked at her daughter''s thin back, blaming herself. She knows that because of her burden, her daughter is not in the mood to accept a relationship... Whether it''s Qiao Jinnian''s or Chu Zixiao''s. Zhang Nian carried his bag and pressed the elevator down. When the elevator door opened, Qiao Jinnian saw a bag in his hand and wanted to go out "Go to work?!" Zhang Nian smiled and nodded. Qiao Jinnian took out a bag of pistachios from the bag and handed it to Zhang Nian. His voice was gentle, and the corners of his mouth said with a smile: "I take care of your aunt. You can work at ease and take care of yourself." Zhang Nian looked down at the bag of pistachios, paused and took it, "thank you." Qiao Jinnian didn''t say anything. He just watched Zhang Nian enter the elevator and sighed secretly. At the same time, his eyes were full of heartache. If he can, he doesn''t want Zhang Nian to go to work at Paradise night. It has nothing to do with the nature of work, but heartache. However, Zhang Nian is a strong girl. Now she can earn money to support herself and her mother. She doesn''t want to rely on others. When Qiao Jinnian closed the elevator door, he turned and went to Yang Yi''s ward Zhang Nian looked at the pistachios in his hand, turned the bag, smiled and walked outside the hospital "Didi!" Zhang Nian had just left the hospital gate when the sound of a car whistle came from the roadside. She subconsciously looked and saw Land Rover pull over. Chu Zixiao motioned to Zhang Nian and opened the window, "I''ll take you there." Zhang Nian sighed and looked at the subway station before turning around and getting on the chuzi roller coaster. There was some silence between the two people along the way. Just as it was approaching heaven night, Chu Zixiao asked, "is your mother better?" "Much better." Zhang Nian answered softly. "Oh..." Chu Zixiao secretly disliked his own. Thanks to his being a lawyer, he is also a lawyer with a smooth tongue in court. What''s going on now? Is your tongue tied because of too much talk in court?! "That..." Chu Zixiao seemed a little nervous. He rolled his Adam''s apple and looked at it. Zhang Nian said, "Momo has given birth to a daughter." Paused, "it was born on the night of the dinner appointment." "Born?!" As soon as Zhang Nian heard this, he immediately brightened his eyes, smiled and said, "I was worried the night before yesterday, and I forgot to reply to Mo mo." Paused, "unexpectedly, she was born that night. It''s nice!" Chu Zixiao glanced at the next Zhang Nian. The smile on her face at the moment came from her heart and fell on the bottom of her eyes, especially pure. Now in this material society, such pure laughter is rare. "Want to see it?" Chu Zixiao asked with a smile, "the little princess is not surprised to inherit the excellent genes of Beichen and Momo." "The children didn''t grow. Can you see it now?" Zhang Nian''s professional instinct. The child is only two days old. Even if he is not wrinkled, he can only see the growth of the child''s facial features from the feeling, right? Chu Zixiao smiled, "then you can prove it yourself." "OK..." Zhang Nian subconsciously promised, but just promised. Suddenly, he was surrounded by Chu Zixiao! Chapter 1599 Zhang Nian was a little embarrassed at once. He looked down at the corners of his mouth and held his hands together unconsciously because of nervousness. "Then tomorrow you see your time, I''ll take you to..." Chu Zixiao glanced at Zhang Nian lightly and took back his sight without piercing her embarrassment. "Momo must be very happy to know you go to see her." "But..." Zhang Nian hesitated, and the corners of his mouth became tighter. Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian again and knew what she was worried about now?! In the past, Zhang Nian was a nurse interning in the VIP ward area of Huakang. Now when he goes back, he must have a burden in his heart. "Come with me, no problem." Chu Zixiao spoke softly. Zhang Nian looked at Chu Zixiao, thought about it and answered. Anyway, she likes Jane Mo very much. There is no shelf, people are easy-going, and they always give people a sincere feeling The most important thing is that after listening to the things between her and Gu Beichen, she admires Jian Mo very much. As a strong woman, she deserves happiness. Although she may not be as lucky as she is, she hopes to have the kind of strength in her... She won''t shrink back in case of any problems. The car stopped at Paradise night. Zhang Nian silently said "thank you" and got off the car. Originally, she thought Chu Zixiao would also go to heaven night, but someone walked to the door and no one came down. Subconsciously looking back, Chu Zixiao put down the window and said, "if you can''t get a car late, call me and I''ll pick you up..." paused, "I had some small cases to finish up years ago and had to go to the law firm." Zhang Nian''s lips moved back and forth. He originally wanted to say that he would like to go home early after his busy work, but when the words came to his mouth, he didn''t say it, but just nodded silently. Chu Zixiao smiled and motioned Zhang Nian in. Zhang Nian nodded and turned to heaven night. The man entered the door and looked back. Chu Zixiao had started the car and was ready to leave There was an unspeakable taste in her heart. She sighed deeply, cleaned up her mood, changed her clothes and was ready to go to work. Just as the talent arrived, the foreman in charge of the bartender just came over. "Zhang Nian..." "Hey!" Zhang Nian answered quickly. "That 412 ordered wine, you go!" Said the foreman. "Well, good!" Zhang Nian nodded, took over the foreman''s list and went to the wine department to get the wine. When she saw that the wine on the list was high-grade wine, she looked back at the foreman with gratitude. Because of her special situation, the foreman and many sisters will try their best to take care of her. "Xiao Nian, it looks good today." The wine maker looked at the list and said, "be careful in the past. Generally, rich people have many problems..." "Well, I will!" Zhang Nian nodded and took the wine to the box. In fact, she also mentioned something in her heart, but who knows, after entering, those people drank and talked about things by themselves, and she almost became invisible. Well, they only think of her when they need wine. Zhang Nian felt that this night was the most relaxing wine serving for her to start from heaven night, in addition to "accompany" Chu Zixiao. "Well, I don''t need you here..." someone in the box said as the morning approached. Zhang Nian answered and left, knowing that those people might have something important to talk about. After she retreated quietly, the corners of her mouth involuntarily smiled. Today''s commission is very considerable. Not to mention, after serving the wine at this time, there will basically be no more people asking for wine. She can also go home early. Just when Zhang Nian received a commission, changed his clothes and left heaven night, the foreman called Chu Zixiao. "Gone?" "You Chu Shao bother to arrange, can you not do it?" The foreman''s voice was full of ridicule, "if you want to help other people''s little girls, you don''t go to battle yourself. Another way is to find another way. I think all the money you earn as a lawyer is going to be put on heaven night." Chu Zixiao sat in the car and looked at Zhang Nian who had just come out of the door. Seeing that Zhang Nian had reached the roadside and was ready to take a taxi, he didn''t plan to call him at all. His eyes were deep. "Anyway, someone pays the bill. What are you worried about?" "That''s true." "I''m busy," said the foreman "Well, thanks!" "You''re welcome!" Chu Zixiao hung up the phone and didn''t call Zhang Nian. He watched her get on the bus and start the car. He followed her not far or near. He didn''t turn the car head into the hospital until he saw her enter the hospital. Mo Mo is right. He should try again in a way that no longer hurts ¡­¡­ "It''s very late. Don''t you leave yet?" Jin shaosi glanced at the two bottles of red wine in front of Fang Xiran and frowned slightly. "Shaosi, it''s better to..." Fang Xiran said with a little hazy tipsy at the bottom of his eyes, "take me to the vineyard?" Jin shaosi didn''t care about her and turned around to leave the winery. "Hey, hey..." Fang Xi ran hurried to get up. Suddenly, her foot was hooked by the leg of the table. With an "ah" sound, she widened her eyes and fell straight forward Jin shaosi was right ahead. Instinctively, he turned around and held the momentum of Fang Xiran''s fall. However, Fang Xiran''s foot was still hooked on the leg of the table. Jin shaosi''s action of lifting up made her body pull down. When people moved forward with the table, they not only didn''t get picked up by Jin shaosi, but also stumbled and fell under his feet! Looking at Jin shaosi''s dark face, Fang Xi burst out laughing. "Fang Xiran, is it interesting?" Jin shaosi said coldly, ruthlessly pushed Fang Xiran''s body and stood up. "Interesting!" Fang Xiran didn''t mind Jin shaosi''s indifference, so he stood up and followed his footsteps to the outside, "shaosi, look, how nice the moon is outside... How suitable it is to go under the grape shelf to talk about love and love!" "The problem is that you and I have no love, no love!" "I have!" Fang Xiran took it for granted. Jin shaosi tilted his head and slightly frowned. He was completely indifferent, and his steps were bigger. ¡°Boss¡£¡± Lu fan saw Jin shaosi coming and opened the door. At the same time, he looked at it and was surprised. After Jin shaosi got on the bus, Fang Xiran ran ran into the car with a sharp figure. He acted quickly and faster than usual. Lu Fan smiled and wanted to praise Fang Xiran, but he didn''t dare in front of Jin shaosi. "Boss, go back to the apartment?" Lu Fanyi doesn''t know Fang Xiran asked in the car. Jin shaosi''s face became darker, so he heard Fang Xiran pick his eyebrow and say, "OK, if you don''t go to the vineyard, I''ll accompany you back to the apartment... It''s late anyway, and I''m too lazy to toss." Chapter 1600 Jin shaosi tilted his head and looked at Fang Xiran and gradually narrowed his eyes. His eyes suddenly became sharp. Fang Xiran didn''t know whether he was guilty or not. He felt that Jin shaosi''s eyes at the moment were like a knife. He cut her head and chest directly, and could clearly see what she was thinking and moving. Hold on! Fang Xiran looked at Shang Jin shaosi. She''s the instructor of the reconnaissance company. If she doesn''t have such determination, isn''t she blind? After watching it for a few seconds, Mr. Jin withdrew his sight and said, "go to the courtyard first." "Yes!" Lu Fan responded, looked at Fang Xiran from the rearview mirror, started the car and drove to the courtyard first. "Jin shaosi, can''t you fulfill my intention once?" Fang Xiran grumbled discontentedly, "after the new year, I will return to the team. You said I had a month''s holiday and made no progress. How can I explain to the organization and the party? I haven''t completed my task!" Jin shaosi ignored her completely and took out his mobile phone to send a message to he Yining. But when he saw the time, he frowned slightly, sighed and put it away. Fang Xiran just saw Jin shaosi take out his mobile phone. His heart was lifted up. When he saw that he put it back again, he breathed a sigh. Obviously, she knew she couldn''t hide it for a day or two, but she didn''t know why. She just wanted Jin shaosi to know later. On the one hand, Li Yunze needs adjustment, on the other hand, she is selfish. In fact, she is very afraid. He Yining is in such a situation that Jin shaosi''s heart jumps on it. It''s just... She feels that her emotional road is rugged enough. Alas! He Yining, for the sake of women loving men and chasing men, why don''t you wake up early? Look, even if you don''t want to take care of Li Yunze, you can''t drag me down, can you? It''s not fair! Fang Xi ran was there with a rich expression of self pity. He didn''t find it at all. I don''t know when Jin shaosi looked at her, and his expression moved slightly with her expression. ¡­¡­ Night pervaded the whole city of Los Angeles. It was approaching the new year and ushered in a new life. Everything seemed to be happy. But because he Yining, the hearts of familiar people are shrouded in a haze. Gu Beichen and Li Yunze sat in the stairwell, with several beer cans in front of them. "I haven''t been sitting in the corridor drinking like this for a long time..." Gu Beichen''s suit was still on the side, and the sleeve of his shirt was rolled up to his elbow. Li Yunze leaned against the handrail, gently shook the beer can and said, "yes," he said with a sigh of relief, "finally, it seems that he was in high school..." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, "now think about it, it''s a long time ago." Li Yunze closed his eyes, crossed the original scene in his mind, and suddenly laughed. "I remember once again, I went swimming with you..." Li Yunze said here, smiling more at the corners of his mouth, opened his eyes and looked at Gu Beichen. "Yining and yanmiao followed them, who knows, she went first before I went into the water." Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and smiled. "He walked by the pool and looked for you. Whether you were in the pool or not, his feet slipped down." After a pause, he raised his eyes and looked at Li Yunze. "Anyway, I didn''t care at that time. Didn''t you go down and save it yourself?" "I''m looking at uncle he''s face." Li Yunze raised his eyebrows proudly. Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze contemptuously, and then said with a slight sigh: "at that time, we were too young to understand love..." "Yes!" Li Yunze was silent and said with a astringent nose, "Beichen, you don''t know... Now look back, what I remember most is her memory." He took a deep breath and then said, "she likes what she doesn''t like, what she''s afraid of, or what she wants to do... I know!" "There are a lot of things in her eyes, but I laugh too hard," he said "Well, it''s the same as when Mo''er married me." Gu Beichen took a sip of beer. "At that time, I didn''t care much. Later, I felt that this woman was very comfortable around me. It seemed that she was a little free." "I don''t know if it''s because we''re brothers," Li Yunze said, wringing his eyebrows to keep the moisture from getting heavier. "Even the people we love have to suffer the same." "So Yining will wake up." Gu Beichen gestured with a beer can. Li Yunze pulled at the corners of his mouth and didn''t say anything. He touched the beer can with Gu Beichen. The two men looked up and drank it in one mouthful, just like the wanton in their youth. "Beichen..." "Huh?" Li Yunze was silent and asked, "what are you going to do?" "Don''t worry, Shi Shaoqin will let them try what it means to be miserable and want to die." When Gu Beichen said this, it was very light and light, as if it was as simple as killing a chicken. "Shi Shaoqin?" Li Yunze frowned and looked at Gu Beichen in surprise. "Some people owe something and have to pay it back slowly..." Gu Beichen didn''t say much about the things between him and Shi Shaoqin. "It''s best to give him such a thing." Li Yunze didn''t say anything, but took another can of beer, opened it, touched Gu Beichen, and drank it in one gulp. Beichen is his brother. Beichen knows his ideas! He knows that Beichen''s hand is not clean when he comes out of the Mo palace, but it doesn''t mean he wants to see Beichen reach into the dark for him Beichen doesn''t do such a thing, and Meng Yi can try to suffer. Maybe his heart can be most stable. Li Yunze lay on the visiting window and looked at he Yining who was "sleeping". He didn''t know whether it was because of the wine smell that the whole person was very sour Tears are uncontrollable. "Yining, Beichen said, you''ll wake up..." Li Yunze''s voice choked. "Everyone told me that everything will be all right... But when I''m with you, my heart is uncontrollably afraid." "Yining, I''m glad I''m a doctor, but now I''m afraid I''m a doctor." "If I don''t know your real situation now, can I still tell myself that I can fantasize, expect and wait?" "You tell me..." Li Yunze''s eyebrows have ended because of sadness. "Tell me, can I wait?" The last light "ah" completely revealed the collapse Li Yunze had to face. No one knows better than him how bad Yining''s current situation is! Li Yunze lay on the visiting window, hung his head and closed his eyes in pain. Suddenly The sound of "di -" came, and the harsh sound disturbed all the silence. Li Yunze looked up in horror and saw that the faint curve of the heartbeat on the heart rate instrument suddenly became a straight line "Yining -" Chapter 1601 Li Yunze shouted, suddenly bounced and sat up. His whole face was completely shocked, and his forehead was full of fine beads of sweat, gasping. He was stunned for a few seconds, then quickly turned over and got out of bed, and hurried to ICU with some messy steps With a bang, Li Yunze accidentally bumped into the dispensing cart coming out of the side dispensing room because of his eagerness. "Li Shao?" As soon as the nurse saw him, she hurriedly asked, "are you all right?" Li Yunze waved his hand and went to ICU regardless of the pain of being hit by his thigh. "Li Shao..." the nurse greeted Li Yunze when he saw him coming. Li Yunze ignored her and hurried to the visitation window. When he Yining''s face fell on the heart rate instrument, he sighed secretly when he saw that everything was normal. Fortunately, it''s a dream! Li Yunze closed his eyes and swallowed secretly. His breath was still fluffy and disorderly, which could not be recovered for a long time. With his hands on one side and his head hanging or drooping, he was powerless and at a loss. The nurse looked at Li Yunze and subconsciously pricked the corners of her mouth to comfort her, but she looked at the intensive care unit and didn''t know how to comfort her. Even though Li Shao has a pair of hands that have saved thousands of people, he is powerless in the face of his lover. That feeling is simply heart digging. The mobile phone vibrated in his pocket. Li Yunze took a deep breath, stood up slowly and took out the mobile phone. Seeing the video request for call one by one, Li Yunze''s heart suddenly "clicked" to see why he Ning, turned and went out of the ICU and picked up the call as he walked. "Dad..." one by one, with a smile on his beautiful little face, the brilliant one is the same as he Yining when he was a child, showing the strength of stubbornness, "did you disturb your work?" "No!" Li Yunze smiled and pressed down all the emotions in his heart. One by one frowned slightly, "but you look haggard!" "That''s because..." Li Yunze originally wanted to lie, but think about it. He will be back soon and meet Yining. In this way, he can''t lie. "I know, you are too busy to have a good rest!" One by one sat cross legged on the bed with a smile. "The teacher booked me a ticket for the day after tomorrow. Well... I''ll arrive around the evening of the day after tomorrow, Los Angeles time." "OK, dad will pick you up!" Li Yunze spoke softly. One by one, he glanced discontentedly, "can''t dad and mom pick it up together?" She sighed weakly, "except for the same frame in the video, it seems that you have never been serious with the frame in front of me several times." Speaking of this, the little girl was obviously dissatisfied, "well, especially after you confirm the relationship..." Li Yunze''s heart was astringent immediately. 11''s words almost let him vent his emotions. Recalling that Yining returned to Los Angeles again, it seemed that after they confirmed their relationship, things kept happening, which always made them unable to be together well. Thinking of this, Li Yunze''s heart began to feel guilty. Not only one by one, but also why to be peaceful! "Dad, what''s the matter with you?" One by one slightly frowned. Li Yunze took a deep breath and said in an uncontrollable hoarse voice, "one by one, I''m afraid I''ll disappoint you again this time..." after a pause, he couldn''t resist the acid and said, "it''s estimated that only dad can pick you up." "Well, I see." 11. Some small losses, but when she saw the guilt on Li Yunze''s face, the little girl said warmly, "Dad, it doesn''t matter. Anyway, our family has a lot of time in the future, and we don''t care about this once or twice, right?" "Yes..." Li Yunze''s nose became more sour. "Our family still has a lot of time, and we will all be well together all the time, right?" Nodded firmly one by one, "of course." She raised her eyebrows and said with a smile, "mom likes you so much. I think according to her one tendon that doesn''t know how to turn, she won''t leave her father in this life! Naturally, she won''t leave one by one!" His words warmed Li Yunze and seemed to give him more firmness to wait. It was said that his daughter was a small cotton padded jacket. At this moment, Li Yunze found that no one was comforted without his daughter''s comfort, which made him more confident. Even her daughter knows that Yining is a tendon, so Yining will wake up certain! "Well," one by one said to Li Yunze after he said hello to the little girl in his bedroom, "I''m going to paint with Aisha. Bye, Dad!" "Bye!" Li Yunze smiled at his daughter and waited until he hung up the phone one by one. His eyes lifted up and fell out of the window... Li Yunze''s mouth gradually overflowed with a shallow smile. He should not feel sorry for himself, let alone fear and worry. If he can''t believe that Yining will wake up, how can Yining feel that he can wake up and have the faith to survive? Li Yunze turned around without the decadence and weakness when he just woke up. Some were incomparably firm. Yining, you can wake up! Wash, disinfect, change disinfection clothes... Li Yunze entered the intensive care unit. He Yining sat down next to him and looked at her pale, bloodless face. Her breath was almost inaudible, and her heartbeat could only be seen on the heart rate instrument. Li Yunze''s heart still hurt suddenly. "Yining," Li Yunze said, pressing down the astringent pain in his heart, "just called me one by one." Paused, "in fact, now she has something, she will call me first. I''m very happy." He smiled. "You must be jealous again, aren''t you? Your daughter is really interested in her father." Li Yunze paused and said after a while, "however, I haven''t told you about you one by one. On the one hand, I don''t want her to be worried and sad until she comes back. On the other hand, I don''t know how to tell her..." "Yining, I found that I was a failed father, and I always couldn''t give a complete home..." Li Yunze''s eyes were red and gently held he Yining''s hand. "You love me and one by one so much, you won''t be willing to make me regret or make one by one sad, will you?" "Yining, when Beichen and I were drinking beer in the corridor last night, I thought of when we were just in high school... Well, at that time, you were still in the junior high school department and didn''t study hard all day, so you walked around me... But ah, in order to stay in the same school with me all the time, you really let you cram for every exam." Li Yunze talked endlessly about the previous things. Every time he said one thing, he found that his memory of he Yining turned out to be so profound. "You see, I know everything about you before. Are you willing to miss my next life?" Li Yunze''s nose became more and more sour. Looking at he Yining, he said with a smile in his mouth, "you missed my time, don''t understand, won''t you regret?" When the words fell, Li Yunze suddenly became stiff and looked down with some fear and tension... His sight fell on the hand in the palm of his hand. Just now, just now, did he feel Yining''s fingers tremble? Chapter 1602 Li Yunze held he Yining''s hand and trembled uncontrollably. His lips trembled because of excitement. Look at her and think of her hand. "Yining, it wasn''t my illusion just now, was it?" Li Yunze''s voice was nervous and broken. He held he Yining''s hand and looked at her. "You tell me, I didn''t feel wrong just now. You really moved, didn''t you?" Li Yunze asked, but the ward was quiet. Quiet, you can clearly hear his short breath because of tension He Yining didn''t give back any information to Li Yunze. Li Yunze frowned and gradually lost as he waited. "Yining," Li Yunze said in a hoarse voice, "just now you moved, but is it just the nerve moving?" He is a doctor and doesn''t want to admit it, but he can''t rule out that possibility. Li Yunze told himself not to lose, but unfortunately, he couldn''t control himself. "Yining, no matter how long, I can wait for you..." Li Yunze gently put he Yining''s hand on his cheek, and his voice was extremely firm. "You can chase me for 6000 days and nights, never flinch, and be indifferent to me for 1000 days. Still hope I have a good life and can be happy... Why can''t I wait?" He looked at he Yining with a smile in his mouth. "After 20 years of persistence, you never thought of giving up... So, in the last step, will you be willing to give up? Are you willing to give up?" "You won''t!" "Because I''m waiting for you, how can you be willing to make me sad?" "Right?" Li Yunze has been talking with he Yining. After talking all morning in the intensive care unit, he doesn''t seem to feel tired. Twenty years, how can he finish his past with Yining in one morning? Gu Beichen stood outside the visiting window and looked at such Li Yunze. He thought of the year when Jian Mo was unconscious. No one can better understand Yunze''s helplessness at the moment and how sour and astringent he must be strong and firm to wait. "Chen Shao..." "Leave him alone!" Gu Beichen opened his mouth gently, and his sight was still looking inside. "With Yunze''s persistence, I''d rather wake up." He believes! Because women''s love for men is the root of their strength. Gu Beichen took back his sight, turned around, left the ICU and went to Jian Mo''s side. When they got to the door, they heard the "noise" inside. Gu Beichen frowned slightly, stood at the door, looked at the two people inside and sighed secretly. "Chen Chen, I tell you, don''t think I can''t deal with you!" Ye Chenyu gnashed his teeth. "Just say it yourself. What did I tell you before you were on duty last night? You have a family now. Even if you didn''t care about my father-in-law before, you should also consider me, your husband, right? What''s the danger? You rush forward. You really think you''re an iron overlord flower?!" "You used to be a policeman or an undercover. Why don''t you say your risk is higher than mine?" Chen Chen refuted. "I''m alone!" "But you still have our mother!" "No problem, daughter-in-law?" "Is that bad?" Chen Yu hummed. "Yes, so just now I said, you used to ignore your father-in-law, and now you have to estimate your husband and me!" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows with a natural look, "just like me now, even if I ignore my mother, I can''t take into account that I have a wife?" There''s something wrong with that! However, Chen Yu was extremely sweet in his heart. Alas, her Uncle Ye is really good at saying love words "Uncle Ye..." Chen Yu pulled Ye Chenyu''s sleeve with a small hand and said in a soft waxy voice, "I''m wrong this time. I''ll improve next time!" "Hehe, you look at me!" Ye Chenyu rolled his eyes, a little angry, but also knew there was no way to avoid saying, "next time and next time, don''t think you''re good, I won''t clean you up." Jane Mo looked at the two people "arguing", and the corners of her mouth kept smiling. "Chenyu..." "Huh?" Ye Chenyu glanced at Jian Mo, "do you want to drink water or eat something? I''ll get it for you." "No!" Jian Mo looked at Chen Yu. "If you don''t want Xiao Yu to worry you all day, it''s very simple. Let her have one in her stomach and it''ll be solved?" Women have children, they will have scruples, and they will naturally think about dangerous things. "One is not enough, I have to guess two!" Ye Chenyu said with an evil smile. Chen Chen blushed, glared at Ye Chenyu fiercely, and said with a hum, "yes, Chuai two, and both children from behind, right?" "You are questioning your husband''s ability again!" Ye Chenyu raised his eyebrows. "Don''t worry, I''m definitely better than Gu Beichen!" "Oh?" The cold voice sounded at the right time, with a touch of incomprehensible, but instinctively felt the breath of pressure. Just now we talked and quarreled so happily that no one noticed Gu Beichen''s return. When they looked at it one after another, they were a little surprised. "Didn''t you find Yunze?" Asked Jane mo. Why Yining has an accident? Jane Mo doesn''t know until now. Considering that she has just given birth and is in confinement, Xiao Yan cried too much last time and left some roots of the disease. She had a tacit understanding and didn''t tell her. "He was busy, so I came up." Gu Beichen said faintly, and the eagle''s eyes glanced at Ye Chenyu. "Uncle Ye, Gu always feels he wants to give you small shoes." Chen Yu said in a "whisper" of schadenfreude. Glancing at my daughter-in-law Ye Yu, "is it me?" "Yes!" Chen Yu smiled, "yes, we will fall in love and kill each other!" "..." Ye Chenyu was helpless. Married a little daughter-in-law, what can I do? When you play hard, you can play with me, and when you are coquettish... You can only be bullied. Gu Beichen went to the small bed and looked at the little princess. When Jian Mo thought about how to "solve" Ye Chenyu, general Gu said faintly: "even if you carry ten or eight at one time, you can only envy me now, can''t you?" Then he picked up the little princess. The little princess was very awesome. When he looked at Beichen, he closed his eyes and his little mouth was grinning. Ye Chenyu looked at the soft little princess and twitched at the corners of his mouth. He envied, envied and hated. He sighed secretly: Gu Beichen, you are relying on you to have children now, shit! ¡­¡­ Jin shaosi looked at Fang Xiran with sharp eyes. "Although your behavior is the same as before, Fang Xiran... You have something to hide from me, right?" "What''s the matter? What can I hide from you?" Fang Xi ran raised his eyebrows and pretended to be stupid. "Hum." Jin shaosi snorted coldly and turned away. Fang Xiran hurriedly followed, "Hey, it''s about to have lunch. What are you doing?" Jin shaosi kept walking and felt a dull faint suffocation in his heart. "Go find Li Yunze and Yining!" Chapter 1603 "Jin shaosi!" Fang Xiran was a little anxious. Seeing that Jin shaosi kept walking, he immediately blurted out, "he Yining is Li Yunze''s wife. No matter how good or bad she is, what does it have to do with you?" Jin shaosi stopped and frowned slightly. "Why can''t you let go?" It seems that it''s for you to keep her, but it''s also for the sake of keeping her in your heart Jin shaosi narrowed his eyes slightly, and a touch of pain crossed from the bottom of his eyes. Fang Xiran sneered, "Jin shaosi, why are you taking a better attitude? In fact, you are selfish." She smiled sarcastically, "do you especially hope that he Yining and Li Yunze have a bad life in your private heart, so you have reason to take him away, right?" "I didn''t!" Jin shaosi seemed to be in the heart of Fang Xiran, and subconsciously turned back to refute. "You have!" Fang Xi Ran''s eyes were sharp. "That''s what you think in your heart, or in your subconscious mind." She gritted her teeth. "Your love is so selfish!" Jin shaosi''s eyes became sinister and looked at Fang Xiran with subconscious disgust. Fang Xiran pulled down the corner of his mouth with self mockery, "I''ve exposed my mind and become angry?!" She "hehe" down, and the arrogance between her eyebrows and eyes made her not allowed to show it even if she was sad at the moment. "Mr. Jin, even if you don''t intend to give yourself a chance, do you have to see why Yining and Li Yunze separated, and your heart is really dead. Is that what you want to see?" Jin shaosi twisted his eyebrows. He didn''t think so, but why was he unable to refute when Fang Xiran questioned him like this? With a slight frown, Jin shaosi seemed to have some helplessness and asked, "Fang Xiran, what do you want to do?" "I want you!" Fang Xi ran said boldly. When love didn''t come, she thought it would be good to marry a suitable person. For example, the original Li Yunze, she felt that regardless of her family background or personal conditions, she was very suitable for her. But later, when she felt that Jin shaosi was more suitable for herself, regardless of status and identity, she thought they would be suitable together. Jin shaosi didn''t speak. He quietly looked at Fang Xiran and had an indescribable thought in his heart. "Shao Si," Fang Xiran came forward, "why not let him go?" She smiled at the corner of her mouth, "whether she is happy or unhappy, that''s not what you can define. Only she knows whether she is happy or not, isn''t she?" "I know that Yining''s happiness lies in Li Yunze. Although I''m unwilling, I didn''t want to deprive Yining of his dream." Jin shaosi sighed helplessly, "although I thought about it many times, I didn''t implement it in the end, did I?" "So you won''t take her away anyway, will you?" Fang Xiran asked. Jin shaosi frowned at me and felt that Fang Xiran''s question was a little strange, but he didn''t think much for another time. He just said in a complicated mood: "she has obtained the certificate with Li Yunze. How can I take her away?" He paused, "and even if he is sad, Yining is only willing to be by his side. How can I take it away?" With a self mocking smile, Jin shaosi leaned over with a sigh and looked at the place where the sun was shining near noon. "If I really want to take her away... Then there will be no unhappiness for her in the past three years." Even though Yining didn''t say anything, he knew that in the past three years, she was unhappy and even suppressed a lot of her emotions. "Really?" Fang Xiran asked with certainty, "even if you are hurt around Li Yunze, you won''t take him away. Why Ning?" Jin shaosi glanced at Fang Xiran and said, "no!" Paused, "I can only beat Li Yunze!" "Remember what you said!" Fang Xiran said, walking in the direction of his car, "take my car and we''ll go to see them together." Jin shaosi frowned slightly. After all, he got into her car with Fang Xiran When he Yining saw that his whole body was full of instruments and the whole person seemed to have no signs of life, Jin shaosi hit Li Yunze in the face without saying a word! "Li Yunze, I''d rather be a good person. I''ve worked hard around you for more than ten years. I''m not easy to be with you... But I''m in pain because of my unintentional mistake at the beginning. Obviously I don''t want to, so I can only leave..." Jin shaosi said and hit Li Yunze one by one. The nurses were stunned one by one. When they reacted, they wanted to pull forward, but Fang Xilan stopped them. "Miss Fang, Li Shao..." "Let him suffer," Fang Xi ran across his arm. "Maybe he can feel better in this way." "Because of your reluctance, she is greedy again, so she will marry you in the end, but you?" Jin shaosi said and hit Li Yunze hard in the abdomen. "After you immersed her in pain and tangled grief for three years, in the end, what she got was not redemption, but lying here with almost no signs of life like this..." With another bang, Jin shaosi made a great effort this time and hit Li Yunze directly into the corner of the rest bed. Li Yunze didn''t fight back from beginning to end, but bore it silently. Jin shaosi''s accusation and his fist made him hate himself more and more. Yining''s emotional illness, and Yining''s eyes that didn''t want to stick to it in the end, deeply gouged out his heart. Jin shaosi came forward and grabbed the clothes on Li Yunze''s shoulder and dragged him up. "Do you think you will feel better if you bear it silently?" He scarlet his eyes. "Li Yunze, I shouldn''t have let Yining follow you at the beginning. I should take her away whether she wants it or not, so there won''t be today!" "Yining is my fault," said Li Yunze, who also had scarlet eyes. He slowly raised his eyes and growled. "I won''t escape... But Yining is my wife. It''s a fact that can''t be changed in this life." "Now you''re going to kill your wife!" Jin shaosi roared like crazy. Li Yunze opened Jin shaosi''s clamp and said with staring eyes and gnashing teeth: "Yining will wake up, he will!" "Wake up, can you erase your injury?" Jin shaosi roared, raised his fist and hit Li Yunze again "Drop -" Suddenly, just as Jin shaosi''s words fell, there was a harsh sound of the instrument. There was a nurse''s subconscious exclamation. Li Yunze was stunned for a moment. He hurriedly pushed away major Jin and rushed to the intensive care unit Chapter 1604 The sound of the roller of the hospital bed suddenly came from the corridor, with a dignified breath of death. The sound of running footsteps is caught in it, which makes people carry it up "Inform director Li, director Wang and director Qin..." Li Yunze''s eyes were filled with a breath of horror. As he ran, he explained to the nurses on one side, "all enter the operating room." "Oh!" The nurse turned and hurried to the notice. With a bang, the headlights in the operating room were turned on, and suddenly a layer of awe was shrouded. However, in three days, he Yining entered the operating room again. In this case, he Yining and a big stone were severely pressed on everyone''s heart. The operating room is dignified, and the complex atmosphere is condensed outside the operating room. Fang Xi ran looked at Jin shaosi and snorted coldly. He didn''t know whether it was intentional or unintentional. He sprinkled a handful of salt on his heart and said, "Jin shaosi, do you see it?" Jin shaosi twisted his eyebrows and looked at Fang Xiran slightly. Fang Xiran''s face was completely sneered at. She said coldly, "even if she was in a coma, she protected Li Yunze... You beat him, so she protested in this way!" "..." Jin shaosi''s eyebrows tightened even more. He knew that Fang Xiran''s statement was somewhat unreasonable, but he was inexplicably afraid. If Yining really can''t Jin shaosi didn''t dare to think about it, but his face was gradually shrouded in a layer of haze and complicated emotions. Fang Xiran took back his sight unhappily, worried badly in his heart, and tightened his mouth. After a while, she said, "although it''s hard at the moment, I envy her very much..." Fang Xiran''s words came with a touch of self mockery. "Shaosi, I was around when I was in a car accident." Fang Xiran said. Jin shaosi suddenly stared at her and listened to her then say, "he Yining was really bad at that moment. With my experience, there was no way to survive. However, Li Yunze still retained her, even if I clearly saw that she had no sense of survival." After a pause, she pulled a wipe on the corner of her mouth and continued with self mockery: "a woman loves a man, which is engraved in her subconscious... So even if she doesn''t have any survival consciousness at that moment, she will still work hard because of Li Yunze''s retention." Gently fanning his eyes, Fang Xiran looked at Jin shaosi, "whether it''s Li Yunze or he Yining, they depend on life and death... No one can insert them anymore. It''s a habit engraved in their bones for many years, many years..." She smiled, although somewhat helpless, "Li Yunze, it''s not unreasonable for people to pass through flowers and leaves without leaving their bodies for so many years... If a man doesn''t love a woman deeply in his heart, how can he give up the yingyingyanyan around him? Don''t you know this most?" Men are animals that think in the lower body, but apart from those other clean people, how many don''t want to get fishy everywhere? hardly any! Once they love a woman as much as they do For example, Gu Beichen is to Jian Mo, Li Yunze is to why Ning... And Jin shaosi is to why Ning. Even if, for example, she was unwilling to admit it. Taking back her sight, Fang Xiran looked at the signal light of "operation" and took a deep breath before saying: "Mr. Jin, no matter whether he Yining can wake up or not, let her go... Although my purpose is myself, but your love," she looked at Mr. Jin again and said the second half seriously, "yes, he Yining is actually a burden subconsciously!" After Fang Xiran finished these words, he didn''t speak any more. Feelings can''t be forced. She likes Jin shaosi and is willing to work hard But this man, she has worked hard for three years, but she can''t let go of another woman. She doesn''t know how long she can work hard. Her situation is different from that of he Yining. After all, when he Yining works hard, Li Yunze has no other woman in his heart. Even if he doesn''t know, he also has a he Yining! ¡­¡­ The operating room is different from Li Yunze''s collapse when he Yining just had a car accident. At this moment, he was so calm that everyone felt that he Yining was not the one who had the second operation on the operating table. "Blocking pliers." "Gauze!" "Wipe sweat..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± All the operation steps are fast, accurate and perfect, so that those who follow the operation once again secretly sigh Li Yunze''s ability. The operation was soon over. Gu Beichen had lunch with Jane Mo and talked with her for a while. After seeing her fall asleep, he heard why he Ning went into the operation again. Just when he arrived at the floor of the operating room, the light of "in operation" just went out. The door was opened and several people hurried to meet Li Yunze. Gu Beichen looked at his face slightly swollen and bruised at the corners of his mouth. He frowned slightly and glanced at Jin shaosi lightly. He didn''t say much, but asked, "the situation is not bad?" Yes, but his understanding of Li Yunze has been affirmed. He could see that there was a soft emotion on Yunze''s face, and there was joy in the bottom of his eyes. Li Yunze ignored Mr. Jin. He just looked at Gu Beichen and nodded. The corners of his mouth unconsciously raised, "Yining is much better now..." after a pause, he said excitedly, "if there was no accident, Beichen, she would wake up!" Hearing such news, Gu Beichen and the people around him were relieved one by one. Gu Beichen patted Li Yunze''s arm, gave him encouragement and support, and gently said, "Yining has loved you for so long and will not be willing to leave you." "Yes!" Li Yunze''s nose was sour because he was too happy. "Go to dinner first," Gu Beichen''s voice can''t be refuted. "Yining is so strong, you can''t let her worry." Li Yunze nodded. Xu was happy. He seemed to have an appetite at the moment. Gu Beichen and Li Yunze left. Jin shaosi didn''t move. He just looked at Li Yunze''s back "See?" Fang Xi ran slowly opened his mouth and looked at Jin shaosi with some sarcasm. "Why Ning''s life is only Li Yunze''s! Happiness, sadness and pain... There is only one Li Yunze in her life!" Fang Xiran stopped taking charge of Jin shaosi and turned to leave. ¡­¡­ Mo palace. "These two days, they are still in the hands of the military. In a few days, they will be handed over to the police for surgery and prison dinner. That''s for sure." Kani looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back and said, "Meng Yi''s injury is his leg. It''s generally OK. It''s the woman, because she was in the same car with he Yining. It''s not light... However, she has also woke up." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth lightly, without any emotion, and didn''t go on. Light... Huh?! Carney twisted his eyebrows and was about to speak when he saw star running this way with his calf thrown Suddenly, Carney knew. Actually, he''s curious. When Qin Shao said these things, he avoided star, but star grew up in Mo palace... So, will star inherit Mo palace in the future?! Chapter 1605 Carney couldn''t predict the future. Naturally, he was too lazy to continue to bother. Anyway, whether star is willing to inherit Mo palace or not, Qin Shao''s unruly temperament towards star must follow star. Carney looked at star''s small body running and nodded. He agreed with his idea very much. "Alas..." Carney shook his head and sighed. He looked at star and whispered softly. "Since the ink palace had star, I think the sea breeze has become soft!" "What do you sigh about?" Xiao Siyue came over and fell on star who hugged Shi Shaoqin''s leg along his line of sight. "Tell me, you''ve been sighing for two years. Why are you still sighing?" "For a woman who doesn''t marry or have children, you don''t understand my sigh at the moment." Carney meant something. "Yo Yo..." Xiao Siyue couldn''t stand rolling her eyes. "It''s like you''re married and you have children." "I''m not getting married. Isn''t that waiting for you? Of course I want you to have a baby..." Carney took it for granted. "Get out!" Xiao Siyue blushed and asked, "where''s the sample?" "I don''t know!" Carney grinned. "Do you think it''s appropriate for you to mention a small sample when I confess to you?" "Very suitable!" Xiao Siyue nodded and turned around. "I''ll find Jue and ask less." Xiao Siyue left, and Carney didn''t care to continue to "study" star, so he turned and followed him. Anyway, Qin Shao has only one star in his eyes at the moment, and he can''t continue to report things "Stone, shrimp fishing!" Star held Shi Shaoqin''s legs and raised his small face. His small mouth was grinning and his eyes were bent into crescent moon. "Good!" Shi Shaoqin stretched out his hand. Star grabbed his finger with his small hand and walked slowly to a shrimp fishing pond specially set up for star. Because of the lack of memory every day, for star, shrimp fishing has become a new thing for him every day. The little guy likes it. Naturally, Shi Shaoqin won''t stop it. Let him. When star finished fishing shrimp and excitedly went to the kitchen with a bucket, Carney suddenly appeared like a ghost. "Qin Shao, asked from Los Angeles, what are you going to do next?" Carney, please. There are a hundred ways to deal with Qianyi Meng. But no matter what, we can''t break the rules of the dark world. It''s always bad for Mo palace... Although Shi Shaoqin may not pay attention to those gossip. "I''ll be there tomorrow and the day after tomorrow." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes fell on the kitchen door. Star hadn''t come out yet. "Let''s talk about it in the past." Carney wrung his eyebrows, and the corners of his mouth moved back and forth to say something. Suddenly, he thought of the birth of Jane Mo, and nodded clearly, "OK, I''ll say it to Los Angeles." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin didn''t respond with too much emotion. No one could enjoy his softness except star. ¡­¡­ When Jian Mo woke up, Chu Zixiao came with Zhang Nian. Well, it''s just right. The little princess is crying. "Little cute is smelly and uncomfortable..." Zhang Nian gently coaxed with a smile while cleaning up the little princess and changing her diapers. After all, the nurse was born. Her movements were gentle and professional. The little princess cried for a while and then grinned. Seeing such Zhang Nian, Chu Zixiao felt guilty. If it weren''t for his sharp methods, Zhang Nian is now a formal nurse of Huakang. With a decent job and a good family, her life should have been very free. Jane Mo pulled down Chu Zixiao''s sleeve, gave him a sign in his eyes and asked what? Chu Zixiao sighed and shook his head. Jian Mo immediately frowned and muttered, "when you were at school, you looked at your EQ is very high. Why are you eaten by your IQ now?" Chu Zixiao was stunned and then pulled the corners of his mouth astringently. "Xiaonian..." Jian Mo stared at Chu Zixiao angrily and smiled at Zhang Nian holding the little princess. "Recently, I want to find a professional baby nurse. Are you interested?" "Huh?" Zhang Nian was stunned, "but... You don''t need to find me?" Not to mention Gu Beichen''s ability, even huakangli''s, it is estimated that as long as Jane Mo likes it, no nurse is unwilling. "Everyone else needs to get in touch again," Jane Mo''s face is not red and breathless. "You know, there are a lot of messy news outside now. Although there are many professionals and mothers, they naturally want to give their children the safest and reassuring care, don''t you think so?" Zhang Nian was a little confused. He always felt that there was nothing wrong with this, but there was something wrong with it. "You are familiar with me. I was born as a professional nurse. I am careful and patient..." Jane Mo said with sincerity and expectation without blinking her eyes. "In addition, President Gu gives considerable wages and benefits. After all, how important his daughter is, he naturally needs to show how much he cares." "..." Zhang Nianzhe looked at the corners of his mouth and felt a little excited. However, she is not stupid. She knows that Jane Mo wants to help her. Although, Jane may really want to find a baby nurse "Xiao Nian, I''m sincere. Think about it?" Jane Mo glanced at the little princess in Zhang Nian''s arms, and made a cunning prediction at the bottom of her eyes, "you see, my daughter is so good that you are willing to turn back. What happens if others don''t take good care of her?" Zhang Nian looked at the little princess. Her soft, cute little face looked very distressing, and her heart melted at once. "But I..." Zhang Nianzhe said at the corner of her mouth. She didn''t know whether she could cooperate with her time. After all, it''s hard to say about her mother''s current situation. "Do you mean time?" Jian Mo immediately put an end to Zhang Nian''s hesitation, "it doesn''t matter. The little guy is still so small now. Most of them are sleeping." "..." Zhang Nian looked at Jian Mo, uncontrollably, and the corners of his mouth twitched. Why does she feel that Jane Mo has finished everything?! Chu Zixiao also looked at Jian Mo deeply. In the past, when he was with her, she never fooled people because of her cold temper. Unexpectedly, she has this side Under Jane Mo''s deception and hard work, Zhang Nian promised to be the baby nurse of the little princess. Not only does she need money, but she really doesn''t want to leave the nursing industry "Alas!" When President Gu came back, he heard about it and sighed helplessly. "What''s the matter?" When Jane Mo arrived at Gu Beichen, she looked lazy and begged for favor. "I think," Gu Beichen frowned slightly, "the whole world is robbing me for my daughter!" Originally, a group of people in the family, together with aunt ye and the Su family, now, because Jane Mo is eager to be a matchmaker, she has an extra baby care?! "I also think the whole world is robbing my sister." "Well, I think the world robbed me of my niece!" "..." Jian Mo looked at the three men, but was speechless. Chapter 1606 After looking at Gu Beichen, Jian Mo glanced at the handsome Jian Jie and the innocent J who began to be evil after school. "How many more can I have? One of you?" "Good, good!" "En en!" Jane Jie and j nodded at once, with praise on their faces. Gu always doesn''t speak, just looks at Jian Mo, a pair of ink pupils are already deep and bottomless "Ha ha!" Jane Mo stared and said angrily, "do you think I''m a pig?" "Stingy!" "Yes!" J and Jane Jie rarely unite after the little princess is born. Gu Beichen smiled on his lips, which did not mean that he was born or that he was not born In his private heart, he didn''t want Mo''er to regenerate. There are always some women in the next world, don''t they? Of course, if Mo''er wants to, he will not refuse. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao sent Zhang Nian back to Shuya hospital. Along the way, the atmosphere in the car was obvious. It was easier than when I came here. Zhang Nian twisted his hand and said, "did you mention that Jane Mo wants to look for baby care?" "No." Chu Zixiao smiled. Seeing Zhang Nian''s disbelief, he said seriously, "it''s really not... I was surprised when she mentioned it." "Thank you anyway." Zhang Nianzhe''s lips fell. Chu Zixiao looked deeply at Zhang Nian, took back his sight and fell in front. Yes, thank you! Chu Zixiao said so in her heart. Mo Mo is to create opportunities for him and Zhang Nian. After all, he''s going to see his sister, isn''t he?! Thinking of the next time, he had many opportunities to get along with Zhang Nian, and he couldn''t help feeling a little happy. "The Chinese New Year is coming soon. What are your plans?" Chu Zixiao asked. "Mom''s physical condition is not very good now. It''s estimated that she will spend the new year in the hospital this year..." Zhang Nian crossed the corner of her mouth, took a deep breath and said, "but it doesn''t matter where. The hospital can be more lively." "Zhang Nian..." "I''m fine!" Zhang Nian hurriedly interrupted Chu Zixiao''s words. She was afraid that when people got a little benefit, they would start to be greedy and want more. Whether it''s Jian Mo''s intention to take care of Jian Mo''s baby or Chu Zixiao''s reason, she is greedy for a while, so she can''t continue to be greedy. At Shuya, Zhang Nian got off the bus in a hurry. Chu Zixiao looked at the back of her running and waving his hand, and suddenly felt that he shouldn''t go into her life again and disturb her peace again? But I just think that he wants Zhang Nian, which is the clearest purpose now. As Mo Mo said, he can chase her on the premise of no harm... At least, it''s necessary to be around her from time to time and let her subconsciously rely on him first. Thinking of this, Chu Zixiao flashed a comfortable smile around his mouth, started the car and drove to the law office of Chu and Tang Dynasties ¡­¡­ "Seriously, I''ve never seen a patient with the same tenacious vitality as Dr. he..." "Yes, it''s a miracle that she can survive such a serious injury. I thought she could only lie in the hospital bed and live by the instrument all her life... Unexpectedly, she has such strong self recovery ability!" "I have a sense of belonging. I don''t want to leave regret. I have a strong sense of survival." "But before, Mrs. Gu also had a strong sense of survival. It took a year!" Someone said, "it can''t be said that Mrs. Gu doesn''t love Mr. Gu, or Mr. Gu doesn''t have a firm heart to keep Mrs. Gu?" "That''s not such a comparison..." a nurse raised her eyebrows and said with the beauty of fantasy on her face. "I think both Mrs. Gu and Dr. he are reluctant to leave because they have love in their hearts." Everyone has no objection to her saying so. "It''s hard for Li Shao to get over it. If he doesn''t want to stay and control him, how can we find someone? I want Li Shao to go all day long..." "Hahaha..." The crowd immediately laughed. In the past two days, the hospital has been filled with a heavy atmosphere. It seems that it is also relaxed because he Yining went in a good direction after the second operation. "Yining girl is the Yining girl I know." Li Jiyuan breathed a long sigh of relief. "Oh, think about her. What pain did she not eat for Yunze?" Li Jinxi smiled and looked at Li Yunze, who was changing the dressing for he Yining in the intensive care unit. "Dad," she looked at Li Jiyuan, "it''s not easy to be together. I''m going to forgive Chen Yu." "Yes." Li Jiyuan has no objection. He can even forgive girl Yining, not to mention Chen Yu who is completely affected? Li Jinxi looked at Li Yunze again. "Life is really too short. It''s a waste of time. When you regret it, you can''t catch up." She sighed deeply. "I don''t want to continue wasting time. Isn''t it good to live in the present? I shouldn''t punish people now with my past mistakes." "Just think about it." Li Jiyuan sighed with relief, "it''s not easy to become a husband and wife, and it''s not easy to walk for a lifetime... No matter you or Yunze, dad has no requirements, I hope you can be happy. In this way, I won''t have regrets when I go to see your mother and brother in the future." Li Jinxi''s nose was sour. When she looked at Li Jiyuan, her mouth was filled with a firm smile. No matter she or Yunze, she will be happy, she firmly believes! Li Yunze personally changed the medicine for he Yining and left the intensive care unit. Now when Yining''s wound heals, he can be transferred to the general ward. "Here!" Li Jinxi handed the ice bag to Li Yunze. "Li Shao, who has always been unrestrained and unrestrained, is beaten like this. It''s a shame to go out." "There''s no one who lost you!" Li Yunze took the ice bag and began to apply his face. Jin shaosi didn''t reserve every punch. At that time, he didn''t feel that his face was astringent, numb and painful. "It''s worth being beaten by Jin shaosi..." Li Yunze put an ice bag on his face and listened to the "hiss" sound. Because he was happy, his action of pulling and laughing led to the corner of his mouth. When he was beaten by Jin shaosi, his teeth knocked against the cracked corner of his lips. Li Jiyuan looked at Li Yunze, smiled, shook his head, took the potion and wiped it for him, "just like a child." "Dad, I''m really happy that Yining can stick to it." Li Yunze breathed a long sigh of relief. "When her physical function recovers, she can wake up." "Well, I''m happy, too." Li Jiyuan said with a smile, "you and Yining girl are on and off. I''m afraid it''s time to be good this time?" "Yes!" Li Yunze nodded firmly. Suddenly, everyone looked at each other and laughed. Just now, no matter Li Jiyuan, Li Jinxi or Li Yunze himself didn''t think of some things... It doesn''t play cards according to common sense, which always makes people feel helpless. Chapter 1607 Fang Xilan looked at Jin shaosi, who seemed to make the world forget him. He sighed quietly, didn''t speak, but just accompanied him quietly. Although she knew that Jin shaosi didn''t need her company at all! The setting sun softly projected through the clean glass window, hit Fang Xiran''s figure lying on the table, and plated a halo around her. Jin shaosi tilted his head and looked down on Fang Xiran''s sleeping face. He frowned slightly. Then, there was an unconscious emotion in the bottom of his eyes Fang Xiran is not the kind of beauty that makes people amazing at first sight, but because she grew up in the military academy and has been experienced in the military academy and military region, she has a capable and sonorous temperament, which is not available to women living in cities. At the moment, the light of the sunset hit her softly, which turned out to be charming under a kind of contrast. The sound of "um" disturbed Jin shaosi''s thoughts. He looked at Fang Xiran with his lips, calmly took back his sight, looked forward again, and didn''t think about what was the reason for his absence just now? Fang Xi ran slept a little uneasy and woke up. When he opened his eyes, he saw that Jin shaosi was still sitting there in the just posture. In front of a glass of red wine, the man''s side is handsome but resolute... It''s like a static painting, which makes people feel tired of enjoying it all day. "Shao si..." Fang Xi ran shouted with a bleary voice. Jin shaosi looked at Fang Xiran indifferently and didn''t speak. "Yes, just don''t talk!" Fang Xiran smiled and said, "I found that the way you don''t talk is really charming..." Jin shaosi frowned slightly, looked at Fang Xiran''s flower crazy look, and said coldly, "Fang Xiran, why are you so childish?" Knowing that Jin shaosi guessed that she did it deliberately, Fang Xiran didn''t mind. He just raised his eyebrow and said, "I just want you to take the initiative to talk to me, can''t I?" Jin shaosi sighed softly and felt helpless about Fang Xiran''s Rogue appearance. "What''s for dinner?" Jin shaosi looked back indifferently and asked. Fang Xiran smiled. He was helpless about Jin shaosi, but he couldn''t ignore her appearance. He was very happy. "There''s a good home-made dish. Let''s go there?" Jin shaosi made a faint "um" sound. He didn''t choose what to eat. Whether in his previous life or later when he returned to Jin''s house, he was too busy to eat. Where was he in the mood to choose?! Fang Xiran said "another meal". They were not afraid of exposure, so they ate in the hall. After all, Fang Xiran has a special identity. Even if the media photographed her with Jin shaosi, no one dared to disclose the news casually. "The landlady here is one word away from my name," Fang Xiran scalded the chopsticks and handed them to Mr. Jin. "Her name is Fang Xilan, hee hee. I don''t know. I thought we were sisters!" Jin shaosi didn''t speak and listened to Fang Xiran talking there alone. "Her husband made great contributions when he was on duty. He opened this restaurant alone with his children..." Fang Xiran looked around the circle, "making authentic Los Angeles food, business has always been very good." "It seems that the meritorious service fee given by the state is quite considerable." Jin shaosi said faintly, "the shops in this area are not cheap." Fang Xiran shrugged. "The store was opened by Gu Beichen. It seems that it was invested and built by the emperor!" She glanced down in some uncertainty. "It''s estimated that it''s almost..." she took the water poured by Jin shaosi and drank it. "Fang Xilan''s husband is Lin Nanan''s subordinate. Lin Nanan has a relationship with Gu Beichen. That''s a brother who changes his life." Jin shaosi listened to Fang Xiran and said that if he interrupted occasionally, he would have a peaceful meal. Xu was "scolded" by Fang Xiran and woke up. When Xu was in the hospital, he Yining had a "reaction" because of his fierce Yunze, which made something loose in his heart. Maybe... It''s because no matter what you experience, why would you rather insist for Li Yunze, so that he can fully understand that many things have unique tracks that others can''t change. Fang Xiran''s mobile phone suddenly rang. She put down her chopsticks and chewed a piece of soy sauce ribs in her mouth. She took out her mobile phone, looked at the call, quickly spit out the bone and picked it up, "what''s the matter?" "Report to the chief, the woman is awake!" On the phone, I heard the capable voice of a young boy. "OK, I''ll go there later." "Yes!" Fang Xiran hung up the phone, looked at Mr. Jin and said, "I''m going to visit the general manager of the army," paused, "Qu Weiwei woke up." Jin shaosi''s peaceful face suddenly became dark, "I''ll go with you." Fang Xi ran frowned slightly, thought for a while and nodded. They went all the way to the military headquarters and went straight to the isolation ward. When the guard saw Fang Xiran coming, he immediately stood at attention and saluted, "Hello, chief!" Fang Xiran saluted back, "how''s the situation?" "The chief checked before he came and everything was fine." "Yes." The watchman nodded and opened the door. Fang Xiran and Jin shaosi entered the ward and saw Qu Weiwei staring at the ceiling. At the time of the accident, as a driver, the strong collision made her face hit the steering wheel, and the broken glass cut a deep hole in her right cheek, which looked a little seeping. "Is he Yining still alive?" Qu Weiwei looked at Jin shaosi and asked. Because her face is wrapped in gauze and she can''t see her face clearly. I don''t know. I thought it was a friend''s concern?! "Even if you''re still alive, I''m afraid you''re waiting to die?" Qu Weiwei wanted to smile, but she didn''t smile because her wound was torn off. But obviously, there was an excited smile in her eyes. "I really let you down." Fang Xiran stepped forward and gently scratched her hand on Qu Weiwei''s hanging leg. Suddenly, her hand pressed hard. "Well" a painful and stuffy voice came, and Qu Weiwei immediately stared at Fang Xiran. Fang Xiran hissed calmly on her face and raised her hand. She looked down, as if she was a little disgusted. After screwing her eyebrows down, she looked at Qu Weiwei again. "Yining, she lives well. After the new year, when the spring flowers bloom, she will make up a wedding with Li Yunze... And you, what will wait for you next will be an endless prison meal." "Impossible!" Qu Weiwei roared, "why is Ning''s injury so serious? How can she still be alive?" "You are all alive. Why can''t Yining live?" Jin shaosi sneered, took back his sight on Fang Xiran and looked at Qu Weiwei, "Qu Weiwei, this time, you won''t have a chance again." As if he had been sentenced to death, Jin shaosi''s words made people feel cold at the bottom of their feet. Fang Xiran changed her active and little woman posture in front of Jin shaosi. At the moment, she is the army cadre in charge of many male soldiers. She is full of fierce breath, which makes people unconsciously afraid. "Yining has Li Yunze''s love..." Fang Xi ran picked her eyebrows and said slowly. Looking at the anger at the bottom of Qu Weiwei''s eyes, the corners of her mouth smiled. "What''s the reason not to be strong to survive?" Chapter 1608 Looking at Qu Weiwei''s wide eyes, Fang Xiran deliberately paused before slowly opening his mouth: "I''ve never seen such a vicious woman like you. Forget it. I still think about what doesn''t belong to me all day long..." "People, don''t do too many bad things. They will always return to themselves." Fang Xiran seemed to sigh with regret, "shaosi and I are coming to see you today to stimulate you..." she paused. A touch of cunning crossed her eyes and looked at Qu Weiwei, who was trembling with anger, "Oh, mainly to thank you! Because ah, your behavior not only makes he Yining and Li Yunze feel that they should be together and love each other for a lifetime... But also makes me stay with shaosi." She smiled, in sharp contrast to Qu Weiwei''s increasingly angry look at the moment. "You really did a great good thing!" Fang Xiran looked at Jin shaosi and asked deliberately, "shaosi, are you right?" "Yes." Jin shaosi glanced at Fang Xi lightly and answered faintly. The woman looked cold one second and came to play with him the next. However, for the sake of "angry" Qu Weiwei, he didn''t care about her. "As for you, take good care of your injury, because you have to live well!" Fang Xiran took back his sight of Jin shaosi''s spirit. When he looked at Qu Weiwei, his eyes were cold. "I''ll take good care of the prison and take care of you... After all, I''ll show you the video when Li Yunze and he Yining get married." "Happiness or something, you have to share it with ''friends'', don''t you?" Fang Xi ran raised his eyebrows and sighed, "Alas, what a pity, Tan Zhonglang... But fortunately, he finally saw your vicious face and stopped at the precipice." "Shut up!" Qu Weiwei was so angry that she couldn''t speak. She clenched her teeth and squeezed out three words, which showed her whole body''s strength. "Tut tut..." as a qualified instructor, Fang Xiran is still very good at controlling people''s psychology. She ignored Qu Weiwei''s anger and threw a handful of salt on Qu Weiwei''s wound with a "sorry" look, "you''re not just a vicious face now, you''re still disfigured now!" "Ah --" Qu Weiwei was finally devastated by Fang Xiran''s words. The soldiers on duty outside secretly took a look inside and hurriedly took it back. She couldn''t help shivering. That''s a sharp cry! "All right, just take good care of your body..." Fang Xiran sighed and said, "I advise you to accept the reality that your face is ruined as soon as possible. After all, China is people-oriented, but it doesn''t mean that the state will give you cosmetic surgery with taxpayer money... So you should remember to adjust your psychology." When Fang Xiran finished her speech, she shook her head and looked at Jin shaosi. "Shaosi, let''s go... In order to enjoy the collapsed cosmetic face, I didn''t have enough to eat." She dropped her lips. Jin shaosi''s eyes were deep, and he saw through Fang Xiran''s meaning. He was happy to cooperate with Qu Weiwei and said, "I''m in a good mood. It''s suitable for drinking some beer and eating some barbecue. What do you think?" "Good advice!" Fang Xiran nodded, "let''s go!" "Good!" Jin shaosi answered, glancing indifferently at Qu Weiwei, who stared, turned and left with Fang Xiran. At the moment when the door closed, Qu Weiwei''s sharp roar came from the ward: "you''ll all die, ah -" "We can''t die well, huh?" Fang Xi ran threw his mouth down and muttered in a humming voice, "I don''t think you can die well!" The soldier standing at attention and holding his chest out slightly looked at Fang Xi ran in amazement. For a moment, he forgot his reaction. In his impression, head Fang is a capable, calm and proud woman. When did this little girl pose?! Fang Xiran seemed to react. He coughed gently and said, "look at it carefully and inform the doctor in time if anything happens." "Yes!" Fang Xiran nodded and left with Jin shaosi. Mr. Jin smiled at the corner of his mouth. "Why?" Fang Xiran knew that he laughed. She just lost her manners in front of the guard and blushed. Jin shaosi was going to speak, but when he saw Fang Xiran''s look of shame, he just smiled and didn''t speak. It was not only that the soldier had not seen Fang Xiran''s little daughter''s posture, but he seemed to have never seen her beat a person with the appearance of an officer. He was so angry that he couldn''t speak. When dealing with women, only women can be the most ruthless! Instead of leaving the hospital, they went to the isolated men''s ward on another floor and looked at Meng Yi. He just broke his leg. There''s nothing serious. After recovering for a few days, he can be directly handed over to the police for sentencing. Stealing patents, deliberately wounding people and hiding drugs... These charges are enough for him to "die" several times. ¡­¡­ Mo palace. Shi Shaoqin''s daily routine now is to deal with the affairs of the Mo palace occasionally, and then sleep, eat, play, walk, catch shrimp with star... And so on! Shi Shaoqin glanced lightly at the seat city on one side, and his sight fell not far away. He sat on the cloth sheet and slowly opened his mouth, "the purity should not be too high, just moderate." Xi Cheng nodded, "I understand." After a pause, he slightly frowned, "however, according to Meng Yi''s previous ability, the purity is not high. I''m afraid his willpower can still compete..." Shi Shaoqin''s good-looking lips crossed with a touch of coldness and said faintly, "when you want to quit, give me another shot." Xi Cheng pulled out uncontrollably from the corner of his mouth. When he stood in the sun, he felt that he was shrouded in cold air. Qin Shao wants to torture a person. He always looks at each other''s slow "death". Well, he won''t let each other die. Originally, he thought that with star, Qin Shao would restrain his temper. It seems that he thinks too much The next day, when the sun fell on the sea level, the private plane had been repaired. Because he was going out for a walk, star was obviously excited and ate half a bowl more for breakfast. Well, actually, he could have eaten it! "Go!" Shi Shaoqin wiped star''s mouth and said. "Hold!" Star grinned and felt his stomach lazily. "I just told you to eat less. Wait until you''re hungry. You have to eat half a bowl more!" Shi Shaoqin said "training" and already possessed himself to pick up star. Shi juechi shook his head gently. "Every time you teach star such a spoiled lesson, he......" he suddenly stopped and thought that star''s memory every day was new, so he couldn''t help sighing. Although some children are wayward, star listens to Shaoqin''s words most. Now "don''t listen" is just because memory is missing every day Chapter 1609 How can I spend my time with Li Yunze. As at the beginning, Gu Beichen took care of Jian Mo without leaving his hands. Li Yunze took close care of he Yining so carefully that he didn''t need care. After all, no nurse has the same medical skills as him, and no doctor can care more carefully than him. "Yining," Li Yunze said softly as he Yining trimmed his nails, "I''ll be back one by one..." He glanced at the quiet he Yining, smiled at the corners of his mouth, but crossed a touch of worry at the bottom of his eyes, "I don''t know how to tell you about your current situation one by one." Li Yunze took back his sight with a sigh and continued to trim his nails. After everything was done, he looked at the time. "I''m going to the airport," he paused. "Whether one will blame me or not, I think my daughter has the right to know about us, and I don''t want to lie to her." Li Yunze attached himself. When he Yining gently kissed on his forehead, he closed his eyes and converged all the complex emotions in the fundus of his eyes. He is Yining''s husband and father. He has the responsibility to bear all the responsibilities. Whether it''s waiting or blaming! Li Yunze got up slowly. His eyes were deeply coagulated. After a while, he got up with a sigh and left the intensive care unit. "Are you going out?" Li Jinxi and Chen Yu just came over and were surprised to see Li Yunze looking like he was going out. "I''ll pick someone up." Li Yunze withdrew his disinfection clothes, took one side''s coat, put it on, and walked out. "Pick up!" When Li Yunze put down two words, he had passed Li Jinxi. Li Jinxi was a little surprised. Now someone can make Yunze feel more important than Yining. Subconsciously, he asked, "who are you going to pick up?" "My daughter..." as Li Yunze said, the man had gone out of the door and disappeared in front of Li Jinxi. "Oh..." Li Jinxi still answered subconsciously and nodded. Suddenly, Li Jinxi suddenly widened his eyes and asked in amazement, "what?" She looked sideways at Chen Yu. "What did you just hear Yunze say?" Chen Yu''s mouth was filled with an evil smile. Although it was a little unkind, Jinxi was finally able to put down the past because of Yunze and he Yining. He was selfish and happy. "He just said to pick up his daughter!" Chen Yu said with a calm look. "Daughter?" Li Jinxi frowned, "are you sure... It''s a daughter?!" "Didn''t you hear it very clearly?" Chen Yu smiled. "Yunze is talking about his daughter... And now Yining is like this. Do you think there are several people who can let Yunze pick him up in addition to the identity of ''daughter'' "Also......" Li Jinxi nodded, "but when did he have a daughter?" With that, she turned her head to the direction of the window, and her eyes fell on he Yining. "Is it Yunze and Yining?" "It must be both of them." Chen Yu smiled helplessly. "God, it''s magic!" Li Jinxi said in a daze that she was incompetent. "The child certainly didn''t come in these three years. Three years ago, in the first half of the year when Yining came back, she didn''t see her big belly, that is to say... Did she have this child very early?!" "Yes!" Chen Yu thinks his wife''s IQ is still online. "No..." Li Jinxi said in a surprised voice, hurriedly took out his mobile phone and dialed Li Jiyuan''s phone, "Dad, where are you?" "At school, what''s the matter?" After nodding with the students who came to ask questions, Li Jiyuan motioned him to be busy first. "Dad, Yunze and Yining have a daughter, you know?" Li Jinxi asked with staring eyes. "What are you talking about?" Li Jiyuan didn''t react for a moment. Li Jinxi smiled at the corners of her mouth. Look, Dad reacted with her. "I said..." Li Jinxi was a little proud, although she didn''t know what she was proud of. "Yunze went to pick up his daughter. Chen Yu and I are in the hospital now. Do you want to come?" Li Jiyuan didn''t speak. After a while, there was something split on his face and hurriedly said, "I''ll go right away." While talking, the corners of the mouth are almost to the root of the ear. "Yes!" Li Jinxi answered and didn''t forget to explain, "Yunze just left. Don''t worry. Just come slowly." "Yes." Li Jiyuan hung up the phone, called the students to come and explain, and wanted to leave. "Lao Li, didn''t you say you wouldn''t go back today?" The professor in the same office asked jokingly. Li Jiyuan looked proud, "my granddaughter is back. No matter how many things have to make way." With that, the man had left the office, leaving a confused professor in the same office. He twisted his eyebrows and said, "when did Lao Li have a granddaughter?" ¡­¡­ "The flight from Frankfurt to Los Angeles has arrived..." The voice of the broadcast came from the airport radio. Li Yunze stood at the airport, looking forward. Although I know, it''s not so fast to come out one by one. In three years, he and Yining went abroad to see one by one because of their research. Although there are video chats with each other in three or two days, it''s not true contact across the screen. I always feel a lot less. A crowd began to flow slowly, and Li Yunze found himself a little nervous. "Dad..." Suddenly, a clear cry came, and I saw one by one running with a small suitcase. Li Yunze quickly waved his hands one by one and saw that the little girl didn''t want the suitcase directly. He rushed into his arms, hugged his neck and gave him a big cheek kiss. Li Yunze''s heart melted in an instant. The people who took over subconsciously looked over, because Li Yunze is a famous gate in Los Angeles. Although he doesn''t appear in the media as often as Gu Beichen, there are still many people who know him. "Li Shao''s daughter?" "When did Li Yunze have a daughter?" "The little girl is a real elf. Look at this foundation. I''m afraid she will be a goblin in the future..." "Li Yunze has a good foundation. If he has a good foundation of women, his daughter can''t even think of goblins!" "Why don''t he women?" Someone said, "but why do you rather look beautiful... No wonder!" "But when did they have such a big daughter? Not three years ago, why did Ning Cai have an affair with Li Yunze?" "Who knows? It may not be their daughter, but Li Yunze''s illegitimate daughter..." The man''s cold hissing voice was a little loud. Li Yunze turned his head and looked at the speaker with sharp eyes. One by one also heard it. He felt a touch of uncomfortable emotion in his heart. After a small mouth, he looked at Li Yunze. Li Yunze immediately understood his daughter''s idea and nodded. One by one, she looked at the man proudly and said, "this aunt, I''m the daughter of my father Li Yunze and my mother he Yining. Please don''t talk nonsense if you don''t know the situation, OK?" She tilted her mouth and said in a serious voice, "it''s impolite and no tutor for you to talk in front of the party!" Chapter 1610 The person who says "illegitimate daughter" is a woman in her thirties. Although there is nothing wrong with calling her "aunt" at an age of one by one, there is still a difference between calling her "aunt". The woman''s face was ugly and she wanted to say something. Because Li Yunze was there, she couldn''t say anything. She had to pull the corners of her mouth awkwardly and hurried to the exit as if she wasn''t talking to her. One by one wrinkled his nose, made a face with the woman, turned his mouth, let go of Li Yunze and went to pick up his suitcase. Li Yunze wanted to give it to her, but shook his head one by one. "Do what you can!" One by one picked his eyebrows and said with a smile, "dad just needs to hold one by one''s hand!" Li Yunze only felt that his heart was filled with honey by one''s sweet mouth. He stretched out his big palm, held one''s small hand and walked to the parking lot Listening to his daughter talking about the interesting things in recent days, Li Yunze gradually felt satisfied and gradually spread The education of children in Germany has always been based on fact and environmental education, which has also trained one-to-one students who have been abroad for three years. They can grow up happily to the greatest extent under the good and reasonable control of their own time and things. ¡­¡­ Li Jiyuan rushed to the hospital and didn''t even need to go anywhere else. He went directly to the ICU. "Where are people? Where are people?" Li Jiyuan asked with a grin at the corners of his mouth, looking left and right. "Dad, Yunze hasn''t come back yet!" Li Jinxi said with a smile, "how can it be so fast?!" "I''m in a hurry!" Li Jiyuan sighed softly, and his face was covered with red light under expectation. "It''s too depressing these days. It''s hard to hear a big good news. Can I not worry?" Now the Li family and Li Yunhao have left. Li Jinxi can say that he doesn''t want to have children. Not to mention her trauma three years ago, she could not bear the pressure of ten months of pregnancy. Li Jiyuan, who had expected Li Yunze and he Yining, now sees such a situation between them. Where dare you expect too much Just when I didn''t expect it, I suddenly told him that he had a granddaughter! That kind of happiness is simply a superimposed surprise. "Li Yunze, a smelly boy, has been hiding my granddaughter for so many years..." Li Jiyuan said with a heavy face after listening to Li Jinxi''s analysis, "see if I don''t clean him up!" Li Jinxi rolled his eyes. "Do you still have time to clean up?" She raised her eyebrows and looked at Li Jiyuan. "Dad, I''m afraid you don''t have enough time to interact with your granddaughter!" Chen Yu looked at Li Jinxi and joked about Li Jiyuan. Gradually, she deepened her eyes. Jinxi is now able to let go of him and himself. At the same time, she has accepted the reality that she can''t have children... It''s good! All gains and losses, there will always be a perfect compensation. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze drove the car, looked at it one by one, thought about it, and said, "one by one..." "Huh?" One by one, he raised his eyebrows and looked at Li Yunze. There was a twinkling light in his bright eyes. "Dad wants to confess two things to you..." Li Yunze said calmly. Originally, the original plan was to tell the identity of 11 together with Yining when they came back for the new year. But now, I don''t know if Yining can wake up when he returns to Germany one by one. He doesn''t want to see the scene of the airport again "Use confession..." one by one nodded his small head and tied his horse''s tail. Because of her action, he mischievously slipped to the front, "it seems that it''s dad''s secret!" Li Yunze was a little nervous. He gently clenched his hand holding the steering wheel and pulled over on the way into the city. "Dad is nervous?" One by one, the pink little tongue licked the lower lip, "look at you, I''m also nervous!" Then he smiled and took a deep breath. Li Yunze looked at his lovely and painful daughter and felt a little sour in his heart. "Say it!" One by one, he seemed to build himself up, brightened his eyes and said, "everything is acceptable!" Li Yunze thought, "a good news, a bad news..." paused. "You may not want to hear the good news after hearing the bad news, or the good news will become bad news... Of course, it is possible that when you listen to the good news first, the bad news will become worse!" I now have a very independent thinking ability. How to choose is also a required course in school. Li Yunze gave this choice to one, but told her what might happen, "which one do you choose to listen to first?" "Then listen to the good news first!" One by one, "bad news is already bad news. If bad news destroys the right to learn good news, I will feel less happy!" Li Yunze looked at his daughter. Although she had been "separated" for three years, time also gave her one by one, which could not be replaced under independence. "The good news is..." Li Yunze swallowed nervously. "One by one, what you just said to that aunt at the airport is true!" First, I recalled what I said to the aunt, then widened my eyes and looked at Li Yunze in surprise, "Dad, what do you mean..." Li Yunze nodded, "one by one, you are really the daughter of Yining and me." "But..." "I didn''t tell you directly at the beginning because I was involved with Yining..." Li Yunze understood his daughter''s hesitation and said quietly, "but you are really my daughter and Yining''s daughter!" One by one, she knew that when she heard the answer, she not only didn''t blame her father, but also was very happy. However, she was a little worried. She was afraid that her father would say this to her because of the aunt at the airport. "Dad," he said after thinking about it one by one, "I think we can make a paternity test first!" "..." Li Yunze frowned, "one by one, no need." He looked at the uncertainty across his daughter''s eyes and sighed, "your mother has loved me for 20 years... Do you think she will have a man other than her father?" "No! My mother is dead hearted!" One by one glanced down, looked at Li Yunze''s nervous appearance, and asked definitely, "really don''t need scientific proof?" "You are my daughter. You depend on my instinct, don''t you?" Li Yunze sighed. One by one immediately smiled and put his arms around Li Yunze''s neck. His nose muttered, "Dad, I''m very happy..." her eyes were a little red, "very happy, I''m your mother''s daughter!" Li Yunze hugged one by one, and the inside of the car was turned into sweet from father and daughter After a while, one by one took a deep breath and let go of Li Yunze, "what about the bad news?" Chapter 1611 Li Yunze was silent. He looked at the beautiful little faces one by one and suddenly didn''t know how to tell her why to deal with the accident "Is it hard to say?" Asked one by one. Li Yunze''s sideburns moved slightly. Because of worry, tension and mixed guilt, his Adam''s apple rolled up and down, and then he said in a hoarse voice: "one by one, there''s a reason why mom didn''t pick you up with Dad..." One by one, she suddenly "cluttered" in her heart. Because she knew it was bad news, her subconscious heart became nervous. "Mom had a car accident a few days ago, and she hasn''t woke up yet..." Li Yunze''s voice was hoarse. First, the head was empty, and then the eyes became red. Without warning, tears came out. "What''s going on?" One by one cried and asked, "didn''t you just have a video call with your mother before? Why did you have an accident?" "It''s dad who didn''t protect mom!" Li Yunze''s face was full of remorse under guilt, and the feeling of self blame filled all the, saying, "if my father was more considerate, if my father could find something earlier, my mother might not bear this..." "Wuwuwuwuwu..." one by one looked at Li Yunze dimly with tears, and the little body cried one by one, "that mother..." She didn''t go on. She didn''t know what she wanted to ask. She just felt so sad, so sad. "The operation my father did himself," said Li Yunze, trying to resist the impulse to hold his daughter in his arms. "Although my mother doesn''t wake up now, my father believes that she can wake up!" While trying to give his daughter faith, he said firmly to himself: "Dad believes!" "How did mom get into a car accident?" One by one, she cried and asked. Tears and broken strings of pearls kept pouring out. Li Yunze was silent and gave a general description of the situation one by one. No matter his daughter didn''t forgive him, he felt that he should let his daughter know that Yining''s car accident was because of him "One by one," Li Yunze reddened his eyes, and his Adam''s apple rolled up and down because he endured sadness. "Dad doesn''t expect your forgiveness, but what Dad wants to say is that no matter you and mom didn''t forgive dad, Dad won''t let you go..." A little confused, she suddenly didn''t know how to choose. She loves her mother. Before returning to Los Angeles, there is only her mother in her world. She wanted her father. At first she thought it would be uncle Si, and then her father in front of her She just wanted a father and never expected to be a real father. Just now, when her father told her that he was a real father, she was really happy without any resentment. Some were happy. But now, dad told her that his mother had a car accident because of him?! "Wuwu..." Crying one by one, he looked at Li Yunze dimly with tearful eyes and didn''t speak. Because he cried too much, his small mouth trembled with his small body. Li Yunze waited for a while. He didn''t speak one by one. He looked down at himself and pulled down the corners of his mouth, "I''ll take you to see your mother first..." He doesn''t expect his daughter''s forgiveness. He needs to bear all the consequences, which he should bear. 11. When Li Yunze was sitting in his body and starting the car, he opened his mouth and wanted to say something, but he didn''t know what he was going to say? The choking sound under the silence filled the car and dispersed the originally happy and sweet breath, which became dignified. Li Yunze drove quietly all the way to Huakang Listening to the cry that her daughter wanted to endure, but couldn''t help it, she was very sad. What might we do? The daughter is back. It''s impossible to hide Yining from her. Instead of letting her find out for herself, he''d better admit it, wouldn''t he? It should have been his responsibility! ¡­¡­ "No, no, I should buy a gift first..." Li Jiyuan frowned. "How can I not even have a gift when I meet my granddaughter for the first time?" "I''ve just been happy to patronize, and I''ve forgotten it!" Li Jinxi frowned. "I don''t know what my niece likes? Oh, it''s all Yunze''s fault. It''s ok if I didn''t say it before. We have to meet before we say it. We''re unprepared for anything!" Chen Yu looked at Li Jiyuan and Li Jinxi discussing nervously there. He really didn''t want to attack them, but he felt it was still necessary to remind the excited two people. "In fact, don''t you think it''s inappropriate to think about the meeting ceremony now?" Chen Yu saw that both of them looked at him and then said, "Yunze left the hospital. Yining hasn''t woke up yet. I''m afraid... Yunze''s daughter will come directly to the hospital." Now, no matter Li Jiyuan or Li Jinxi, the smile on their faces froze in an instant. "Since Yunze doesn''t want to hide from his daughter," Li Jiyuan sighed, "it seems that today''s so-called meeting ceremony is really unnecessary." Li Jinxi restrained his expression, stared at Chen Yu, and said discontentedly, "after a while, you have to pour cold water." Chen Yu came forward, took Li Jinxi into his arms and said, "I''m not afraid of waiting for things to come and I can''t react at once?" "Hum!" Li Jinxi hummed softly, with a proud face and a heavy, "Dad, do you think Yunze will take all the responsibility on himself?" "Certainly." Li Jiyuan also gave a deep sigh. Jinxi doesn''t know, but he knows the accident between Yining and his eldest son. Yunze''s guilt for Yining is probably the same as Yining''s guilt for Yunhao Between sighs, footsteps came from outside. After Li Jinxi and Li Jiyuan looked at each other, someone opened the door Li Yunze was standing at the door holding one by one''s hand. One of them had a dignified face and red eyes. At first glance, he had just cried. One by one, she looked at the three people inside. When everyone was at a loss, she gently said, "Hello Grandpa, aunt and uncle..." her voice was choking after crying, "I''m Xinyao. My father and mother called me one by one!" Under such circumstances, remember to greet everyone politely one by one, which suddenly made Li Jiyuan''s three hearts warm and sour. After Li Jiyuan answered excitedly, he looked at Li Yunze and heard him say, "on the way back, I told the family members one by one." One by one, he fanned his wet eyelashes, looked up at Li Yunze and asked, "Dad, can I see my mother first?" Li Yunze nodded and took them to disinfect one by one. After wearing disinfection clothes, he accompanied her and entered the intensive care unit together. When I saw he Yining lying there one by one, the tears that had just stopped came out again Chapter 1612 "Mom..." One by one walked forward to see why Ning''s instrument connection line, and tears fell uncontrollably. Li Yunze came forward, and the big palm gently hugged the small shoulder of the next one, giving her strength. Sobbing one by one, holding he Yining''s hand in his small hand, trying not to cry. However, seeing her mother like this, she couldn''t control it. "Mom, come back one by one..." one by one said while crying, "do you want to wake up and have a look at one by one and hug one by one?" She bit her lower lip and then said, "Mom, I want you to hold one by one... Even if it''s big now, I also want my mother to hold it!" One by one crying and saying, sour Li Yunze''s heart. The three people waiting outside looked so sad one by one. "Yining is great," Li Jinxi choked. "I didn''t expect her to be so naughty when she was a child. The daughter she taught would be so clever!" Chen Yu took Li Jinxi in his arms, and his men made a slight effort. Li Jinxi felt Chen Yu''s worry and looked at him. At the right time, he also looked over. "I''m fine..." Li Jinxi shook his head gently. "I just saw one by one. It hurts." Chen Yu smiled and comforted Li Jinxi. "Everything will pass... Yunze''s waiting and one by one''s expectation. Yining won''t be willing to leave." He looked at the intensive care unit. "Besides, after the second operation, Yunze didn''t say that Yining would wake up." Li Jinxi nodded, and Li Jiyuan also looked forward to looking at the three members of the family inside Seeing his granddaughter for the first time is such a scene. He doesn''t even have time to take a good look at his granddaughter, who is already over seven years old. He has to look at her so sad! Alas! Fortunately, everything is settled Yunhao''s research has successfully applied for an international patent. After clinical application, it can be produced in large quantities to benefit more patients and families. Now, when Yining wakes up, the Li family is finally sunny after the rain. Eleven and Li Yunze left the intensive care unit for an hour. After the little girl cried wantonly, she seemed to accept the fact that he Yining was lying there temporarily. Li Yunze took them to the office meeting one by one to wash and repair. They didn''t leave the hospital and ate dinner directly in the hospital canteen. "The little girl who followed Li Shao shouted ''dad''... Did I hear you right?" "Very responsible to tell you, no!" "God, when did Li Shao have such a big daughter?" "I don''t know. It''s amazing!" "Is it the daughter of Li Shao and Dr. he?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± In the hospital canteen, there were medical staff in the hospital eating. Everyone looked one by one and looked curious. Sniff one by one and look at the people talking about her. Different from the aunt at the airport, although they are also talking, their tone and face are curious with goodwill. Li Yunze gently pinched the next one''s little hand. The little girl understood her father''s meaning, opened her mouth, looked at the people''s fluttering eyelashes, and said in a clear voice without flinching: "Hello, I''m the daughter of father Li Yunze and mother he Yining. You can call me one by one!" The "wow" sound of surprise came. Suddenly, everyone didn''t care about eating. While questioning one by one, they expressed their greatest kindness to one by one. "In the future, we will have a long time of contact. My granddaughter hasn''t eaten yet when she gets off the plane. Don''t surround everyone." Li Jiyuan ''ha ha'' smiled, his face full of contented smiles under joy. After the crowd retreated, Li Yunze and other talents found a table and sat down. Li Jinxi and Chen Yu asked what they liked to eat one by one before they went to get their meals. Li Jiyuan looked at his granddaughter with red eyes and his son with complex emotions on his face. After thinking about it, he still said, "one by one, grandpa doesn''t know whether it''s appropriate to say this right now..." "Grandpa has something to say. Listen one by one." One by one, he opened his mouth. Li Yunze looked at Li Jiyuan and didn''t know what he was going to say to each one? "One by one, I think my father may have told you the reason for my mother''s car accident..." Li Jiyuan said, "you may not forgive my father for protecting the patent but letting my mother do so. However, what I want to say is that from the perspective of family, my father is wrong, but from the great relationship, my father is not wrong!" Li Jiyuan was sure that Li Yunze didn''t tell the eldest son one by one. Naturally, he wouldn''t mention it. Now that he has forgiven Yining, he doesn''t want to put any burden on his little heart. Li Yunze became nervous again. He didn''t expect his daughter''s original, but he wanted her to forgive... This was a very contradictory heart. One by one, he was silent, and his little hand kept wringing when he was nervous. The atmosphere was a little strange. Li Jiyuan sighed secretly. Just when he wanted to say ''eat first'', he heard one by one: "before, I had a program, and I remember a sentence from the host very deeply..." Li Jiyuan and Li Yunze looked at each other one by one. "He said: everyone thinks love is great, but in fact, taking responsibility will enable you to enjoy a high-level happiness." Looking at Li Yunze one by one, his eyes were full of pure faith, "at first, I didn''t understand the meaning of this sentence, but now I understand." "Although I don''t know how powerful the medicine is, my mother is willing to protect it with her life, which means it''s very important..." one by one seriously said, "we may have little power to protect everyone, but we can''t let ourselves harm others!" She said, her eyes red again, "although mom hasn''t woke up yet, I believe mom will wake up... Because she has always been very strong!" Her warm heart and well-organized words moved Li Yunze and Li Jiyuan. Even Chen Yu and Li Jinxi, who came back with the food, were deeply shocked. Eleven is only seven years old. How difficult it is to understand? "We all firmly believe that mother will be strong!" Li Yunze gently rubbed 11''s little head, "11, thank you for your understanding... Let''s wait for mom to wake up, huh?" "Yes!" Nodding heavily one by one, there is no conviction under any impurities in your eyes. ¡­¡­ Shi Shaoqin strolled around the crescent lake with star in his arms. Since he arrived in Los Angeles, the little guy was reluctant to leave him. As long as he couldn''t see anyone for a while, he would look everywhere with red eyes. Although the memory is missing, it is obvious that the injury of "stone doesn''t want him" last time in Los Angeles still remains in the subconscious mind. "Star," Shi Shaoqin sighed, "go to see your sister. Stone can''t go with you, so you have to go with Qingqing..." Chapter 1613 "Don''t go." As soon as star heard that the stone didn''t go, his small mouth tooted and immediately hugged Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin sat down on a bench, motioned for star and put the little guy down. "But don''t you want to see your sister?" Shi Shaoqin asked. Star doesn''t have much emotion about "sister" because his memory is refreshed every day. At the moment, he heard Shi Shaoqin say that he only thought that this "sister" was very important to stone, so he accepted it. "The stone won''t go..." star muttered bitterly. Shi Shaoqin smiled softly, gently rubbed star''s small head and said seriously, "because stone has more important things to do, star can''t participate in this matter." Star tooted his mouth. "Star''s task tomorrow is to see his sister with Qingqing, huh?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t compromise because of star''s dissatisfaction. He just continued, "stone and star have their own tasks. When they come back, they should tell each other whether they have completed the task, huh?" Star''s eyes began to shine. Shi Shaoqin''s pretty lips gently smiled, "if star completes the task well, will stone promise star a condition?" "Yes!" Star nodded heavily, "star finished the task!" Shi Shaoqin''s smile on the corners of his mouth increased. Looking at star, although he knew he would repeat it tomorrow, he found recently that he would continue to forget when he said something to star, but there was a "memory" in his subconscious mind. It would be much easier to say it to him again For example, today, star obviously promised faster than yesterday. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze found something to put on her eyes one by one. She has been crying since she heard about her mother''s car accident. She has been crying for too long. Her eyes are red and swollen. If she doesn''t deal with it, her swollen vision will be blocked the next day. "Dad..." shouted one by one. "Yes." Li Yunze answered, put down the things in his hand and looked at them one by one. "I want to walk." 11. I don''t know if it''s too sad. My heart is a little stuffy. I want to breathe. "OK, I''ll accompany you!" Li Yunze got up with a smile. "Where are you going to go?" "In the hospital?" One by one fanned his eyelashes, "I don''t seem to have been in touch with my father''s world and work!" Li Yunze''s heart was filled with warmth one by one. He didn''t think his daughter needed to be a doctor like him and Yining, but if he could, naturally he was very happy. No matter whether the interest in the future is above or not, he will not refuse her to go deep, nor will he force her to enter! "OK," Li Yunze said with a smile, "it''s a little late today. I''ll show you the hospital first, okay?" Nod one by one, "OK!" Next, the whole hospital not only saw the legendary "Li Shao daughter" just after dinner, but also visited all of Huakang''s modern and scientific management. "Aunt Yanyan..." just one by one, I saw yanmiao coming out of the office in a white coat. "One by one?!" Yan Miao was stunned at first, and then ran with a smile on his face one by one, holding the much taller little girl in his arms, "when did you come back?" "Not long before dinner..." hugged yanmiao''s neck one by one and asked for a pet kiss. The red eyes are not red, but they smile one by one. He looked at Li Yunze and saw him nodding slightly. He knew that he had already known what he should do. "Is aunt Yanyan on duty tonight?" Asked one by one. Yan Miao smiled and nodded, looking at the red eyes one by one. Her distressed heart also stung. If she didn''t endure it quickly, she almost burst into tears. "Aunt Yanyan is not sad, one by one is OK..." one by one looked back at Li Yunze and said warmly, "now one by one with my father, we can wait for my mother to wake up!" A sensible word made yanmiao''s nose more sour. "I haven''t seen one after one for three years. One by one is really a big child." The nurses at one side of the nurse station were also sour and looked at each other. They were moved by the warm and strong words one by one. "Dad, can I play with aunt Yanyan for a while?" "Good!" Li Yunze squatted down, gently held one by one''s hand and said, "wait, Dad comes to pick you up, huh?" Nodded one by one, watched Li Yunze get up, looked at him firmly, and smiled at the corners of his mouth. She should also be as strong as her mother. Her father must be very remorseful and sad now. She wants to give her father some comfort and encouragement. Thinking like this, the smile at the corners of the mouth is bigger. Li Yunze was moved one by one. After three years abroad, he learned one by one that the greatest wealth in life is independence. She not only has the ability to think independently, but also can be strong under independence. On the roof of Huakang hospital, there are two beer cans on the platform. Gu Beichen stood aside with his hands in his pockets, his sight fell in the distance, and the ink pupil seemed to devour all the darkness. Li Yunze''s arms supported the platform, his body was slightly prone, and there was a smile at the corners of his mouth, "Beichen, it''s good to have a daughter!" He lowered his eyes and smiled. He thought of the feelings brought to him one by one. The whole person was full of warm breath. Gu Beichen glanced at Li Yunze, and his thin lips overflowed with a shallow smile. He is also a father. Naturally, he understands that the joy filled in the heart of a child at that intimate moment can not be replaced by other happiness. Li Yunze breathed a long sigh of relief, and his sight fell in the distance. "When Yining wakes up, everything bad will pass..." "Tomorrow..." Gu Beichen just wanted to say something when his mobile phone suddenly vibrated. Because Gu Beichen suddenly stopped talking, Li Yunze glanced at him and saw him take out his mobile phone. When he saw the call, he frowned slightly. Gu Beichen picked it up and put it in his ear without opening his mouth. Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak either. Now they are more and more childish and begin to freeze. "At three o''clock tomorrow afternoon," Shi Shaoqin said indifferently after a while, as if the childish confrontation did not exist at all, "meet at diamond star." As if to deliberately disgust Gu Beichen, Shi Shaoqin chose a place related to his "first love" Shen Chu. Gu Beichen immediately blackened his face and said in a cold voice, "can you stop being so childish?" "To deal with childish people, only childish means can be used." Shi Shaoqin also snorted coldly. Without saying anything more, he hung up the phone. Gu Beichen put down his mobile phone, and the eagle''s eyes narrowed slightly. How did he open them? He didn''t know whether it was because of Shi Shaoqin''s words or thinking, but Meng Yi, how did Shi Shaoqin come in person Chapter 1614 "What''s the matter?" Li Gu''s face was slightly chilly. Gu Beichen didn''t hide Li Yunze, and calmly said, "Shi Shaoqin is coming." Li Yunze straightened up. "What''s he doing here?" Because of Shi Shaoqin, Gu Beichen''s character has changed from sunshine to today''s indifference, and there are those dark years in Britain. Li Yunze really has no good impression of this man "Also, when did you seem to have a good relationship with him?" Li Yunze frowned, "last time I heard you say, I didn''t ask... Beichen, what''s the situation?" "Not an enemy, not a friend!" Gu Beichen frowned slightly and said, "it''s an enemy and a friend!" The relationship between him and Shi Shaoqin has long been unclear. Maybe it''s a friend, maybe it''s not... It''s like an enemy, but it''s like it''s not! Li Yunze frowned and his eyes crossed the accident. After all, others may not know Shi Shaoqin''s harm to Beichen. They know it. It''s more or less unexpected that the relationship can change like this. "It is estimated that he came here this time because of Meng Yi..." Gu Beichen said and looked at Li Yunze. "Need him to come in person?" Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep, and Li Yunze''s doubt was something he didn''t understand. "Maybe there''s something else?" Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually sank and said, "although his hands didn''t go deep into China, there are still a lot of people here... Plus your business, I''m afraid he wants to make sure whether there are any changes during this period that will affect the ink palace." "Speaking of this," Li Yunze hesitated before saying, "Mo palace didn''t study this time..." Gu Beichen scratched a sneer at the corner of his mouth and said faintly: "that''s because he knows that it''s useless to be interested!" The result is that you can''t have it. Shi Shaoqin will never do useless work. Li Yunze stared at Gu Beichen deeply. Unlike Shi Shaoqin, who couldn''t be mentioned before, he now... Even if he mentioned it, there were no waves. "The Dragon boss will bring warmth back in a few days." Gu Beichen changed the subject. "Originally, we thought we could celebrate the new year together," Li Yunze said with a touch of astringency. "I''m afraid boss long thought that he happened to attend the wedding of Yining and me..." He didn''t go on with the rest, but took a deep breath. Gu Beichen came forward, patted Li Yunze on the shoulder and gave his brother support. ¡­¡­ "Xiao Nian, I heard you didn''t do it?" Several people who also served wine in the night of heaven asked curiously. Zhang Nian nodded with a smile, looked at the foreman and said, "there''s something wrong with the time to go to baby care for a baby." Paused, "the other party gave very good conditions, so I promised." "What about salary?" The bartender who had been taking good care of Zhang Nian asked with concern. Zhang Nian smiled and nodded. "Although there was no talk, it should be manageable." "It''s over without talking? Is the other party reliable? Is there anything wrong?" Zhang Nian felt warm, shook his head and said, "the other party is very reliable. Because I know each other, I guess I want to help me." "Be careful. In today''s society, sometimes friends are unreliable... Huh?" Zhang Nian''s nose suddenly murmured "Hmm" because of the other party''s concern. After thinking for a while, she quietly said to her: "the other party is Jian mo. she and President Gu have just had a daughter and let me take care of them..." As soon as the bartender heard this, he opened his eyes in surprise and was immediately happy for Zhang Nian. Because she has been working in paradise night for a long time and has a good relationship with the foreman, she has long heard of some things Chu Zixiao has done silently for Zhang Nian... Naturally, it''s no surprise that Jane Mo will ask Zhang Nian to help take care of the children. After all, Gu Beichen is Chu Zixiao''s little uncle! "Come back and see the sisters when you have time." "I will..." Zhang Nian hugged everyone before leaving. Standing at the gate of heaven night, Zhang Nian looked ahead with uncontrollable happy overflow at the corners of his mouth. After the accident at home, she really can''t imagine that she can do a career related to nurses in the future Whether Jane Mo sympathizes with her or for any purpose, she is really happy to return to her favorite career! Smiling again, Zhang Nian went down the steps and wanted to go to the subway station to go back to Shuya hospital. Suddenly, the sound of a car horn came Zhang Nian looked back and saw Chu Zixiao''s car parked there. "I''ll take you to the hospital." Chu Zixiao said with the window open. Zhang Nian sighed and looked at the direction of the car, but didn''t move. Since she made it clear with Chu Zixiao last time, she thought it would be over. However, he will still appear beside her, but he won''t say any more sensitive topics. Just like friends, he will send her away, or... Pretend to pass by occasionally and pick her up at the right time. "Are you waiting for me?" Zhang Nian walked to the car and didn''t get on the bus. "I made an appointment with someone to talk about things. As soon as I arrived, I saw you standing there in a daze..." Chu Zixiao lied and didn''t change his face. "It''s estimated that you''ll come back to Shuya and see you off." When Zhang Nian heard this, he knew that he was amorous, and his face turned red. "Didn''t you ask someone to talk about things..." Zhang Nian looked embarrassed. "Well, let the other party wait first." Chu Zixiao said, "after all, a coffee like me always has to wait to appear before I can have an aura." Obviously, it''s a very serious fact. I don''t know why. When Zhang nianyi heard Chu Zixiao say "coffee", he couldn''t help laughing. "Get in the car?" Chu Zixiao slightly raised her eyebrows and motioned. Zhang Nianzhe turned his mouth and got into the car. Along the way, they didn''t speak, but there was no strange atmosphere in their imagination. "Ready to go to Huakang tomorrow?" Chu Zixiao asked. "Well, I''ll be there when my mother finishes nursing tomorrow." Zhang Nian answered subconsciously. "Then I''ll pick you up and see my sister by the way..." Chu Zixiao also picked it up very smoothly. Zhang Nian glanced at Chu Zixiao. When she "knew" him, she knew his thoughts on Jian Mo and his previous relationship with Jian mo. Now he can say "sister" calmly to Gu Beichen and Jian Mo''s children... Although it was originally a brother sister relationship. "What''s the matter?" Chu Zixiao saw that Zhang Nian looked at him and didn''t speak. He felt a little lost. But he didn''t show it on his face. He hurried and said, "don''t have pressure. I just thought, even if we couldn''t do anything before, we can always be friends..." Chu Zixiao stopped at the red light intersection, simply looked at Zhang Nian and said seriously, "in the future life and the future road, no one knows what will happen or what will happen... Zhang Nian, just treat it with an ordinary heart, not giving each other a chance, but giving himself a chance to develop naturally... Is that ok?" Chapter 1615 Zhang Nian looked at Chu Zixiao. At that moment, she clearly felt that she was greedy again As expected, when people have extravagant hopes for one thing, they will have strong thoughts on the second thing, so that when the temptation is in front of them, they can''t help but want to get close. Chu Zixiao didn''t speak any more, just quietly waiting for the answer. He didn''t expect Zhang Nian to accept him at once, but he hoped she could think about it slowly. They looked at each other like this, and time seemed to be at a standstill. "Didi" Suddenly, the car whistled anxiously. Chu Zixiao subconsciously looked at the signal light, which was already green. He started the car and crossed the intersection The atmosphere inside the car gradually became a little frozen. Zhang Nian hung her eyes and didn''t speak, and the corners of her mouth were tight. Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian and sighed softly. He couldn''t worry about it. They arrived at the hospital in silence. Zhang Nian subconsciously glanced at the direction of the hospital and gently said, "well, I''ll go first..." "Good!" Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian with a smile. He looked worried and didn''t say anything superfluous. Zhang Nian and Chu Zixiao looked at each other, then turned and got off the bus. When the door closed, she turned and went into the hospital. Chu Zixiao didn''t shout what she said. Seriously, she was a little surprised. She thought that Chu Zixiao would let her think about it or something Alas, the lawyer is really attacking his heart! He didn''t say anything at the moment. Instead, he began to think here. Chu Zixiao watched Zhang Nian''s back disappear at the bottom of his eyes before starting the car to leave He didn''t say anything just now. He really attacked his heart as Zhang Nian thought. Only when you do anything with a degree of relaxation can you arouse people''s hearts most. "Niannian..." Qiao Jinnian just came out of the operation. He hasn''t changed his clothes. It''s strange to see that Zhang Nian is still in the hospital at this time. "Senior." Zhang Nian smiled and said hello, "just had an operation?" Qiao Jinnian nodded, "didn''t you go to work?" Zhang Nian shook his head. "I just resigned." Seeing Qiao Jinnian''s doubts, she thought for a moment and said, "I''m going to be a baby nurse tomorrow. I''m a little free in time and the treatment is also very good, so I quit heaven night." Hearing that Zhang Nian has returned to the nursing field, Qiao Jinnian is really happy for her. After a few words, Qiao Jinnian said, "I''ll change my clothes first and have a snack later, huh?" Zhang Nian smiled and nodded, "please!" Qiao Jinnian originally wanted to refuse, but when he saw Zhang Nian happy, he nodded, "OK!" ¡­¡­ At night, after dinner, most families seem to be immersed in peace Coupled with the upcoming Lunar New Year, the joy rendered in the air permeates every family. But in this world, there is joy, sadness and harmony... Naturally, there is confrontation! "I disagree!" Mo Shaochen twisted his eyebrows and looked at Li Xiaoyue. "You spent so much effort to fight criminal cases. Now you want to transfer to civil cases. I don''t care why you disagree!" The firm words showed unquestionable firmness. Mo Shaochen''s face was cold and his eyebrows were slightly frowned, which made people look a little uncomfortable. Li Xiaoyue smiled at the corners of his mouth, thought for a moment, and said, "if you want to turn to something else, I''ll agree?" "I can avoid playing with you in the future." Mo Shaochen knows that most of the reason why Li Xiaoyue wants to transfer to civil law is because of his opposition in court. "I''m not just for this reason..." Li Xiaoyue crossed a touch of astringency in his heart. Some things have passed, but it doesn''t mean that when you think of them, you don''t have any feeling as something that hasn''t happened. "Shaochen, you know I transferred to civil, not just because I don''t want to face you in court." Li Xiaoyue''s voice was calm. "There are some things that I, as a former victim, want to work hard for others." Mo Shaochen''s eyebrows tightened even tighter. For Li Xiaoyue''s mention of the past, he was distressed and her heart was also wrenched. "Xiao Yue..." Li Xiaoyue smiled. She didn''t know whether she wanted to dispel the pain in Mo Shaochen''s heart or to cover up the pain at that moment when she mentioned the past. She turned slightly and lay on Mo Shaochen. "Shaochen, we are lawyers..." Li Xiaoyue said with a smile. "Whether criminal or civil... Even business and assistance... We are still lawyers." She looked ahead and her eyes fell on the ink space outside. "You are born to be a criminal debate, and I..." Li Xiaoyue took back her eyes and said to Mo Shaochen''s eyes, "... A large part of the reason is because of you!" Whether she was admitted to the political law system or later chose criminal defense, she was because of Mo Shaochen. "But now that you are my husband, my dream is not limited to criminal defense." Li Xiaoyue said seriously, "so please don''t feel sorry for me... Because what''s a pity when dreams are around?" Mo Shaochen looked at such Li Xiaoyue. After a few seconds, he possessed himself and kissed her This woman is always so strong that it hurts him. "Xiaoyue..." Mo Shaochen let go of Li Xiaoyue''s lips and said in a low voice, "I''m your dream. Do you know that you are my persistence?" Li Xiaoyue hooked Mo Shaochen''s neck, smiled and kissed him on the corner of his mouth, "so, I''ll transfer to civil, you continue criminal... Did you agree?" Mo Shaochen looked at Li Xiaoyue and sighed softly. It was a longer and deeper kiss The next day, as if the footsteps of spring were getting closer and closer, early in the morning, the sun projected onto the earth, and suddenly felt warm everywhere. Star woke up early. After Shi Shaoqin instilled again that he was going to see his sister, the little guy was obviously looking forward to it. "Reward for completing the task!" Star blinked his bright eyes and his moist mouth was also slightly tooting. The whole beautiful little face sprouted in the morning, so that Shi Shaoqin couldn''t refuse the little guy at all. Well, although he wouldn''t have refused star. "OK..." Shi Shaoqin said with a smile, "as long as the reward star wants is within a reasonable range, stone can agree." "Yes!" Star nodded happily. Because he was happy, he patted his hands and ran beside the crescent lake. Shi Shaoqin looked at Star more and more deeply. Under the complex emotion of reluctance, guilt, helplessness and joy, he sighed slightly Star, will you forgive my selfishness in the future? Chapter 1616 Shi Shaoqin sighed softly and felt that since star began to have "amnesia", he seemed to become not only naive, but also hypocritical. And such emotions should not have appeared on him After playing with star by the crescent lake for a while, Shi Shaoqin looked at the time, "star, it''s time for breakfast." "Still want to play!" Star has become a little wayward recently. "Have breakfast first." Shi Shaoqin won''t be controlled by the little guy on this point. Star toots his mouth and confronts Shi Shaoqin, but after a few seconds, he angrily takes back his sight. He is dissatisfied, but he still compromises and goes to Shi Shaoqin''s side. "Hold!" Star said capriciously. Shi Shaoqin smiled helplessly at the bottom of his eyes, picked up star and went to the villa designed by Jian mo This kind of daily life is often found in the Mo palace. Qingqing always doesn''t understand why she can be sprouted by Qin Shao and star every time she sees it. Alas! Qin Shao is so evil and indifferent. I don''t know what star will look like when he grows up next to him? She seems to feel that star, who has the temperament of Qin Shao and inherits the intelligence and nature of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo, will be more visible and unavailable when she grows up! ¡­¡­ Gu CI watched Zhang Nian carefully wipe her body for the little princess. All her movements were soft and professional. She looked back, poured out the stewed soup and handed it to Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo looked at each other, one with a calm face, the other drinking soup and observing Gu ci "By the way, has the little princess got her name?" When Zhang Nian asked, he looked back and saw Gu Ci, subconsciously nervous. "The nickname is Yan Yan, the color of Yan..." Jian Mo broke the sudden tense atmosphere and said with a smile, "my boss said that the little princess will live a colorful life in the future." Jane Mo didn''t say another reason. The birth of the little princess also filled her thoughts on Xiao Yan. "Yan Yan must be ok..." Zhang Nian ignored her heart. Seeing Gu Ci''s nervousness, she looked at the little princess with a smile. At the right time, the little princess grinned with her eyes closed. Like that, cute, people can''t help but want to spoil her. "I''ll do the laundry first." Zhang Nian is a winker. Knowing that Gu CI must have something to ask Jian Mo, she took the little princess''s utensils to the hospital to wash and care for infants and young children. As soon as Zhang Nian left, Gu CI frowned and asked, "what''s going on?" "What''s the matter with a matchmaker and addict?" Gu Beichen is talking. As for whether elder sister Gu Xiaozi and Xiao Mo can go together, they can only stare at it first Paused, "but elder sister, do you object?" Gu CI sighed, "seriously, I don''t like Zhang Nian." Whether she didn''t know her identity at first or knew it, she didn''t like Zhang Nian when Zhang Zhengtang and Yang Yi framed Zixiao again. It has nothing to do with this girl. Although I know she is also a victim. She has a good character and works hard, this pair of eyes is left from the first sight. At the beginning, Beichen married Jian mo. although she knew that Beichen was because of her shares, she couldn''t say that she liked Jian Mo at a glance, but she felt very comfortable with her. Eye edge is sometimes very strange. "But after seeing you and Beichen... Their children''s happiness, they can grasp it by themselves!" Gu CI sighed, "daughter-in-law wants to live with her son all her life, not with me all her life... I like seeing more, but I don''t like seeing less." Jane Mo smiled with a smile in her mouth. "Zixiao will be more firm in her heart if she has a big sister." After a pause, she tried her best to start selling, "elder sister, Xiaonian is really a good girl. Although I know that there is always something wrong between mother-in-law and daughter-in-law, we don''t need any matching family. As long as we have a good character and love Zixiao, it''s good... Are you right?!" The Gu family really doesn''t need marriage to stabilize its position. Chu''s group is also rising with the recent capital injection of Gu Beichen. Moreover, Gu Ci and Chu tianqin now know that Chu Zixiao is not suitable for business. He likes to be a lawyer. The Chu family will join the emperor sooner or later. Gu Beichen has a deep mind. If he is unprofitable, he is afraid that he will only cede benefits to Jian mo. if others want to get his benefits for no reason, they don''t know how to die without thinking about it in their own heart. "Follow Zixiao. If he can handle other girls, I''ll accept it." Gu CI looked at Jian Mo and said, "but don''t persuade me about the things that add fuel to the flames." "OK... I know, you''ve made the biggest concession." Jane Mo smiled, her eyes crossed with cunning. Gu Beichen sighed quietly. Looking at his wife worrying about so many other people''s things all day, he was a little jealous. "Eh," Gu CI suddenly looked around, "why didn''t you see Xiao Jie?" She''s a little strange. "Yunze''s daughter is back, and Xiao Jie goes to Spencer with her one by one." Gu Beichen said faintly. "Yunze''s daughter?" Gu Ci was surprised. Gu Beichen nodded, "well, I''m a few months younger than Xiaojie. I didn''t go to school with Xiaojie in Spencer before I went abroad." "..." as like as two peas of the Tzu Chi, he exclaimed, "you two are really brothers from small to large. This is exactly the same thing as a child. Jane Mo smiled, "I''m not sure. In the future, the brothers of ''childhood sweethearts'' will really become a family!" Gu CI didn''t recognize the meaning, but Gu Beichen was helpless. "Mo''er..." Jane Mo shrugged and looked at Gu Beichen''s eyes with teasing. In that way, Gu Beichen understood what she was thinking in an instant? With Li Yunze and Shi Shaoqin, there are more and more bad tastes of his women recently ¡­¡­ Just after two o''clock in the afternoon. Shi Shaoqin sat at the window of diamond star, listening to the soft piano music in the restaurant, and his vision fell slightly deep outside At this time, accompanied by the person in charge of Los Angeles, Qingqing just took star from the crescent Lake Villa. From yueyahu villa to Huakang hospital, it takes about an hour to drive smoothly. At that time, Gu Beichen was no longer in the hospital anyway. Time goes by Shi Shaoqin didn''t move. It was like a still picture. The men and women in the restaurant always subconsciously focused on him. The mobile phone silently flashed the screen on the table. Shi Shaoqin seemed to feel it. He took back his sight, glanced lightly and picked it up. "Qin Shao, star and I have arrived at the hospital." Qing Qing reports. "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered and saw Gu Beichen stop. He hung up calmly and sent a message: give him the information prepared for J. Chapter 1617 Seeing that the information was sent out, Shi Shaoqin calmly put down his mobile phone, picked up the red wine in front of him and sipped it. At the same time, he saw that Gu Beichen had entered the restaurant. Gu Beichen stood at the door, glanced at Shi Shaoqin, and walked over indifferently. "You''re always like this... On time." Shi Shaoqin said faintly, "although this time will not be a traffic jam, are you not afraid of a little accidental delay?" "It''s all right. You''re waiting anyway..." Gu Beichen opened his mouth indifferently and sneered. "Aren''t you always the best patient?!" Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful lip angle raised an incomprehensible radian. He slightly raised his eyebrow and slowly said, "that''s true. I''ve always been very patient when dealing with you." Gu Beichen sneered, "why don''t you say that you are always patient when you are evil and disgusting?" Between three or two words, the two men looked up. Suddenly, under the lightning and flint, the surrounding air was frozen in an instant. The waiter who came to give Gu Beichen a glass of water froze there. He looked at two men who were arrogant and awe inspiring in their unique style, and swallowed them involuntarily. The people in the restaurant know Gu Beichen. They thought that in Los Angeles, Gu Beichen''s momentum could not be compared by anyone. Unexpectedly, there will be a man who looks absolutely beautiful but doesn''t make people feel feminine. His momentum is not lost to Gu Beichen. The waiter''s scalp became numb under the confrontation between Shi Shaoqin and Gu Beichen. He raised his heart and gently put the water cup in front of Gu Beichen, so as not to disturb the confrontation between the two people. After putting it down, he completely forgot his etiquette, turned around and left in a hurry It felt like a narrow escape. "In fact, I''m curious..." Gu Beichen slightly restrained his confrontational eyes, picked up the water in front of him and drank it before slowly saying, "how can a Meng Yi let you come in person?" "Why did I come here in person? You can''t think of it?" Shi Shaoqin smiled, very shallow, with a touch of the metamorphosis that Gu Beichen was most familiar with. Gu Beichen immediately frowned, "Mo''er is still in the moon. Your appearance will remind her of Xiao Yan!" Speaking later, there was a warning in his voice. Shi Shaoqin sneered, "Gu Beichen, if it wasn''t for this, do you think I would be here now?" The rhetorical question made Gu Beichen hum coldly. "In fact, I''m thinking," Shi Shaoqin said leisurely, looking at Gu Beichen''s slightly cold face, with a shallow smile in the corners of his pretty mouth. "Maybe Mo''er has accepted the fact of losing Xiao Yan. My appearance may not make her how." As soon as Gu Beichen heard this, he immediately sank his eyes. "I won''t make assumptions about Mo''er''s things..." he paused. "If you come to disgust me today, I''m finished. I''ll still go to see Mo''er, Shi Shaoqin. Don''t blame me for being rude." "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin''s smile increased a little. It felt like he wanted someone to punch off his smile. "I want to see... How rude you are to me!" The tense atmosphere under the confrontation that had dissipated, but for a moment, it spread again This time, not only the surroundings, but also the whole restaurant was made nervous by the smell from them. Fortunately, Shi Shaoqin''s appointment time was not a meal, and there were only a few people drinking afternoon tea in the restaurant. ¡­¡­ "Oh, no one robbed the little princess with me today..." J lay on the side of Yan''s little bed and looked at his soft face. The corners of his mouth were almost to his ears. "Yes, please don''t leave today. When you look back, Xiaojie and President Gu are back. You must have no share." Jane Mo said jokingly. J turned his eyes. "Xiaojie took xiaoqingmei to have a little love, and Gu Beichen didn''t know what to do mysteriously..." he touched his hand and gently grabbed the little princess''s hand. "It''s just me. It''s true love for the little princess!" Jane Mo held back her smile and tried to sit up. Because it affected the wound of abdominal surgery, a slight tingling came... She frowned and endured it. "What do you want? Tell me, I''ll take it for you..." J said discontentedly, "you deserve it!" "It hurts me so much that you have no sister again. I think who deserves it!" Jane Mo Xu was childish when she was with J. she hummed discontentedly, "I can''t bear to die of pain. My Yan hasn''t called me ''mother''!" "That''s a modal particle, isn''t it?" J turns over his eyes, which can hide his chagrin under the constraint of his eyes. Jane Mo smiled when she saw him like this. "Why can''t she stand jokes after living in Los Angeles for so long?" "Hum!" J hummed discontentedly and poured a glass of water to Jane foam. This afternoon is the quietest time here. No matter who delivered the meal or came to see her and the little princess, they were not in at three or four o''clock in the afternoon. J just wanted to go back to the little princess, when a text message came from his mobile phone. He took it out and looked at the content of the text message. His face suddenly changed. "What''s the matter?" Jane Mo frowned slightly and looked at J. he didn''t know what had happened. His face was very ugly. "I''m going out..." J said, suddenly wringing his eyebrows. "You go. What else can I do in the hospital?" Jian Mo immediately saw J''s worry, "when something happens, I''ll ring the call bell, and Zhang Nian is coming." J thought and nodded, "well, I''ll go out first." "Yes." Jian Mo answered with some worry, "what''s the matter? If it''s inconvenient to call me, remember to call ah Chen." "I know." J said and hurried away. "I don''t know anything. Why does J look angry?" Jane Mo looked at the direction of the door and whispered, slightly worried. J hurried out of the VIP ward and went to the parking lot. Seeing J driving away, Qingqing turned to star and asked, "star, do you remember the task given to you by stone?" "Yes!" Star flashed bright eyes, and his cute, beautiful little face was full of confidence. "Star will be able to complete the task and ask for gifts with stones!" "Good!" Qingqing smiled and rubbed star''s head. After opening the door and getting off, she went to hold star and got off the bus and walked to Jian Mo''s ward. Qingqing didn''t walk fast. It seemed that she was a little delayed. Qin Shao made an investigation of all the situations and set aside such a time for star to meet her sister. She can''t show some clues because of Jian Mo''s intelligence. "Dong Dong!" When the knock came, Jane Mo just got out of bed to see the little princess. "Come in..." Jane Mo said without looking back. She looked at the little princess''s diaper and kissed her face. "Aunt!" The delicate voice came with a soft breath. Jian Mo immediately looked at the voice and saw star grinning and fanning his eyes at her. ¡°Star£¿£¡¡± Chapter 1618 After Jane Mo shouted in surprise, her eyes brightened instantly, and she got up quickly and wanted to pass. But because the action was a little big and involved the wound, she twisted her eyebrows immediately. "Be careful, it''s just a few days ago..." Qingqing hurried over with star in her arms. Jane Mo slowed down and shook her head to show that she wanted to hug star when she was all right. Star seemed to have a sense. He opened his arms and said softly, "aunt, hug!" "No..." Qingqing hurriedly stopped star, looked at Jian Mo''s abdomen and said, "my aunt just gave birth to a sister, and now she can''t hold star." Jane Mo just forgot that she had a wound because she was too excited to see star, but now she saw that star also wanted her to hold her. She said reluctantly, "just hold it. It''ll be fine." "Aunt hug!" Star looks at Qingqing with his lips. He looks a little stubborn under caprice. Stone said that the content of the task should kiss my aunt. It''s good to kiss as long as you hold it! Qingqing was worried. Seeing the expectation on Jane Mo''s face, she was not willing to give up her instinct of hugging the child. After thinking for a while, she said, "star, you can only do it for a while, and... Be careful of your aunt''s stomach!" "Yes!" Star smiled and nodded, then turned and jumped at Jian mo. Jian Mo took star, and the pain immediately came from the wound because of the gravity on her body However, Jane Mo has unspeakable happiness and satisfaction at this moment. Every time, as long as she holds star, she has an unspeakable reluctance to give up. It seems that she wants star to be her own son and can hold it all the time. Jane Mo is a little sad. She feels that it must be because star is about the same age as Xiao Yan. She subconsciously treats the star as Xiao Yan. "Kiss..." star said, hugging Jane Mo''s face with his small hand and slapping it heavily on her cheek. The saliva remained on Jian Mo''s face. The soft waxy feeling made her heart sour and astringent, but her happiness burst. Qingqing is worried about Jian Mo''s wound. She kisses Jian Mo in star and holds her back. When her arms are empty, Jane Mo feels her heart is empty "Well," said Jane Mo, looking at Qingqing to hide her embarrassment, "is there something wrong with your coming to Los Angeles this time? How did you know I had a baby?" "It''s through Los Angeles. I''m going somewhere else." Qingqing said, "the one in my family hasn''t had a good rest for several days and has a cold. I came to prescribe some medicine... And I saw Jian Yao." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she immediately understood that... J just left and was met by star''s mother and son. Qingqing asked J about her, and then she knew that she had a daughter and that she was here. "It''s a coincidence," Qingqing said with a smile. "Whether it''s abroad or in Los Angeles, it seems that no matter how busy and how tight time is, we can always meet. Sometimes, it''s really hard to say about fate..." "Yes, yes, I also think I have a good relationship with star." Jane Mo looked at the beautiful star. She was so soft and cute that she always wanted to have greed in her heart. The idea of wanting other people''s children makes Jane Mo can''t stand herself. "Sister..." star pointed to Yan Yan with his little hand, and wanted to rub it off Qingqing. Qingqing puts down star, and the little guy stomps to the side of the bed. But because of the height gap between his stature and the small bed, he put his small hands on the edge of the bed and tried to pad his small feet, but he would only be able to see a little inside. "Can''t see!" Star looks at Qingqing angrily. Qingqing smiled helplessly. Jianmo had already been passed by, pulled the chair to the side of the small bed and motioned for the next step. Star understood the meaning of Jane Mo at once, and said sweetly, "thank you, aunt." At the same time, the little guy has quickly got on the chair and knelt on it. He can clearly see the little princess. "Beautiful..." star said, reaching out to grab the little princess''s face. Afraid that he didn''t know the weight, Qingqing hurriedly said, "star, be careful. Don''t hurt your sister." "Yes." Star nodded seriously, looking at his smaller face without blinking, and his small mouth couldn''t help but grin to the maximum. Watching the interaction between star and the little princess, Jane''s heart at that moment didn''t know how to describe it. Unlike the interaction between milk bag and Yan Yan, this feeling is like a warm moment that has not been seen for a long time, filling the surrounding air... Making her feel like she has nothing else to ask for. "I didn''t know you were born and didn''t have time to prepare a gift..." Qingqing looked at the little princess and was annoyed. "I''m very happy that you and star can come and see me and Yan Yan." Jane Mo said sincerely. "There are gifts!" Star suddenly stares at Qingqing with dissatisfaction. Qingqing didn''t react. She saw star raise her little hand, and the blue agate stone tied to her wrist shook. "Oh..." Qingqing responded at once, "there''s really a gift!" With that, she quickly opened the bag and took out a small brocade box from inside to open it. "If star doesn''t remind me, I''ve forgotten..." Qingqing said, "it seems that it''s not fate." She opened the brocade box to Jian Mo, "we bought it when we went to Minas Jinas the other day." Jian Mo looked at a small golden stone in the small brocade box and wore it with a woven rope. "Is this Topaz?" Asked Jane mo. Qingqing smiled and nodded, "just... You sent star agate stone, and we sent little princess Topaz stone." After a pause, she looked painfully at the sleeping little princess and said, "gold represents sunshine, and yellow topaz means friendship. It''s perfect to give it to the little princess." "I tied my sister!" Star likes his sister very much, but he hasn''t forgotten the task assigned by Shi Shaoqin. "OK! But be careful not to strangle your sister!" "Yes." Star answered, took the topaz stone, carefully picked up the little princess''s arm and began to do it. The little guy is very small, but he looks serious and careful. Qingqing looks at Jian Mo and sees that she is absorbed in watching Star''s actions. After thinking about it, she takes out her mobile phone and takes some photos in the direction of star and the little princess. Jian Mo seemed to feel something and looked at Qingqing. "Wait a minute, shoot the hands of the two children tied with gifts," Qingqing didn''t say to Jian Mo that she had taken a group photo of star and the little princess, but said, "since we are so destined, I''m wondering if there will be anything interesting for children to meet in the future, whether as brothers and sisters or whatever?" Jane Mo quickly nodded, "this idea is good. It''s really worth looking forward to the future fate to give them the track of life." Jane Mo was so happy that she didn''t notice that the beginning of Qingqing''s words was based on "brother and sister". Chapter 1619 Star carefully tied the topaz stone to Yan Yan, grabbed her little hand and lifted it slightly Qingqing presses the camera on the hands and wrists of the two little guys. Then she passes the picture to Jian mo. She can''t leave the picture of star to Jane Mo, but in her private heart, she gives Jane Mo comfort in this way. The group photo of star and his sister will also be a precious gift on the way of star''s growth After Qingqing stayed for a while, the phone rang. Sorry, she nodded with Jane Mo, then put it in her ear, "uh... I met the one who sent star agate stone last time in the hospital... Yes... OK, I''ll take star back now, uh, OK!" Listening to Qingqing''s intermittent response there, Jane Mo knows that she is leaving with star. Even if she doesn''t give up, she can''t stop others because she doesn''t give up. "Star and I left first..." Qingqing said with some apology. Jian Mo looked at star, sighed softly, smiled and said, "I don''t know when to meet next time?" "We are so destined that we will meet soon." Qingqing said with a smile and motioned for star, "star, we should go..." "Oh..." Star answered. His little hand was still reluctant to touch Yan Yan''s little hand. Then he got out of the chair angrily, looked back at the direction of the small bed in three steps, went to Qingqing''s side, and his small mouth shriveled while holding her leg. Jian Mo was sad to see star like this. She tried to resist the surging emotion in her heart and said with a smile, "star, remember your sister." "Yes!" Star nodded in response, with firm eyes. Qingqing sighed secretly, knowing that star would not remember today''s events when he fell asleep, and suddenly felt a little sad. Picking up star, Qingqing said, "star, and aunt and sister say goodbye." Star gently waved his little hand and said sweetly, "Bye aunt, bye sister..." "Bye..." Jane Mo couldn''t help blushing her eyes. She felt ashamed of herself in front of the child''s mother. She smiled and said, "aunt will miss star." After listening to this, star leaned towards Jane Mo with a grin. Driven by his inertia, Qingqing followed up and saw the little guy holding Jianmo''s neck and rubbing his face on her face. The rubbed soft Nuo said, "star will miss his aunt too..." and kissed Jianmo''s face again. Jane Mo also gave the little guy a gentle kiss before waving her hand. Watching Qingqing and star leave, when watching the two figures disappear at the corner of the ward door, Jane Mo felt that her heart was empty for a moment. The feeling that something was lost and filled with something was wonderful... It made her feel that some things were arranged and doomed. ¡­¡­ "This is the last time," said Shi Shaoqin, with an obvious dislike on his beautiful face. "I''m not your helper to solve the problem." "Then you give me back, Xiao Yan." Gu Beichen said coldly. "..." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and didn''t speak. Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly deep. "Shaoqin, our debts in this life... I''m afraid we can''t figure them out." "Oh?" Shi Shaoqin looked back indifferently, and a deep smile crossed the corner of his good-looking mouth. "Then don''t figure it out... After all, the relationship between me and you and between me and Mo''er is really unclear." To ask who else in the world can disgust Gu Beichen, I''m afraid he doesn''t want to be a second person except Shi Shaoqin. Sure enough, as soon as his words fell, Gu Beichen suddenly blacked his face. In due time, Shi Shaoqin''s mobile phone lit up. He picked it up indifferently and looked at the text message. It was sent by Qingqing, who said she had left the hospital. Shi Shaoqin didn''t reply. He put down his mobile phone and said indifferently, "where is Meng Yi, to what extent do you want to do?" "Didn''t you say that death is liberation?" Gu Beichen opened his mouth indifferently. His slender fingers gently knocked on the table, and a cold and fierce breath suddenly rose on his body. Whether it''s brother Yunze, or Yining... Yunze himself, he has no reason to make Meng Yiyu''s life too easy. ¡­¡­ J went to the place according to the information on his mobile phone and sat in the car. From a distance, he saw a girl who looked very young but took a middle-aged man in her forties and got on a luxury car with the man talking and laughing. J''s eyes were slightly cold, and his hand clutching the steering wheel gradually tightened up. After the car started, J didn''t know why he had to follow up. In short, I have been following you for a while when I found out my behavior The luxury car finally stopped at the Los Angeles hotel. After the middle-aged man gave the car key to the parking, he smiled greasy and led the girl into the hotel. J felt that the whole picture was very hot. He used a lot of strength to keep himself from getting off the bus and came forward to knock down the middle-aged man and then hit the ground. Thanks to the convenience of Beichen, when parking and driving to the underground parking lot, J went to the parking lot and stopped at the parking space near the luxury car. Waiting for the parking to leave, J first looked at the luxury car, then took one side of the notebook and opened it. His fingers quickly left upstream of the keyboard for a while, which had invaded the central control system of the hotel. The picture is changing until the man holds the girl''s hand and enters a suite J''s breathing became more and more heavy. He suddenly remembered that when he accompanied Jane Mo to the fetal examination, he met the girl in the Department of Obstetrics and gynecology. At first, he didn''t think much But now, it seems that it''s not what he thinks. The finger left the keyboard upstream again, and J "fixed" the central control screen of the parking lot when there was no one before. Get out of the car, open the trunk, J attached to the body, quickly installed a set of micro monitors, and pressed them on the luxury car. He felt that he must be crazy before he could be sure again. He was afraid that what his eyes saw was not a fact. After J got on the bus, he took his cell phone and read the text message. Nothing special, just tell him that the girl he likes is not so simple on the surface, but has been helping him! J was so angry that he read the text message for a while and directly dialed back: "is the ink palace so idle recently that it hurts? Do you stare at my broken thing?" The person in charge of Los Angeles looked innocent. According to Shi Shaoqin''s previous explanation, he said, "Qin Shaoqin is worried about you. Naturally, we should pay attention." After a pause, he continued, "moreover, you have been living in the Mo palace, where people''s mind is very ''simple''..." Well, if you want to leave Qin Shao''s control, there is nothing else. "How long have you been out? It''s normal for Qin Shao to worry about you." After putting the blame on Shi Shaoqin, J was dissatisfied, but he didn''t say anything more. He just hung up. Qin Shao is kind to him, he knows. Even if everyone thinks Qin Shao is cold-blooded, he is very good to Jue Shao and him! Well, it''s better for Jian Mo and Gu Beichen! J grinned and felt that he was obviously angry that his business was stared at. How did he become jealous?! J tilted his head and looked at the luxury car. While looking back, he tapped his finger on the notebook twice. Immediately, the monitoring of the hotel returned to normal. J didn''t stop and drove away Just as he passed the luxury car, he looked cold. Chapter 1620 When star just left the hospital, he was a little wilted and scratched on the window. Looking at the direction of the VIP Building, his little face was reluctant to give up. Just, I don''t know whether the little guy is not willing to be Jane Mo or his younger sister who is smaller than him Or both! Qingqing looked at star and didn''t want him to be unhappy. She distracted his thoughts, "star, did you finish the task today?" As soon as star heard this, he looked at Qingqing and nodded heavily, "Hmm!" He grinned. "There are hugs and kissing aunts, touching younger sisters, and giving gifts to younger sisters... All completed!" Star has a good memory. It has been reflected in recognizing people since he had not started "amnesia" before. "Has star decided what gift he wants with the stone?" Qingqing asked. "Yes!" Star tilted his head with a little complacency. "What is it?" Qingqing is suddenly curious. Star and qinshao will offer any reward. Star looked at Qingqing''s curious appearance and grinned. When Qingqing''s heart was tense because of her curiosity, he said, "I only say to the stone..." "..." Qing Qing almost choked herself with a breath. The driver looked behind his eyes from the rearview mirror and smiled at the corners of his mouth. No wonder I heard that the painting style of Mo palace has changed a little because of star. Look at this beautiful and lovely little guy. Qin Shao can''t do without becoming soft! Back to the crescent Lake Villa, Shi Shaoqin hasn''t come back yet. Star looked around and saw no one. He immediately looked at Qingqing angrily and said, "call!" Qingqing was surprised by the little guy''s "momentum" at the moment and grinned secretly. She felt that because of star''s anger, Qin Shao would agree to more rewards without integrity. Qingqing doesn''t know if Shi Shaoqin is still with Gu Beichen at the moment. She doesn''t have a phone and only sends a message. Shi Shaoqin replied quickly: arrive in ten minutes. He said ten minutes, but in the last five or six minutes, Shi Shaoqin came back. I saw star sitting on the sofa angrily, ignored him when he came back, and went to star to sit down. "Angry?" Shi Shaoqin said faintly, "is it because star finishes the task faster than stone, so he is angry?" As soon as star heard this, Shi Shaoqin didn''t wait for him at home because he didn''t finish his task. Suddenly, his small face smiled happily, "star is great!" "Well, star is better than stone!" Qingqing saw that Shi Shaoqin could only say a word and turned star from cloudy to sunny, indicating that she had seen through This big and small world, others do not understand, but it is simple to make people understand at a glance. "Star has finished the task. Have you figured out what reward you want?" Shi Shaoqin asked. "Yes!" Star''s mouth was small. While Shi Shaoqin was waiting, he suddenly hugged his neck and said in a soft and sweet voice, "star wants the stone to be star''s stone forever..." Warm heart words are not the requirements of requirements. It not only warms Shi Shaoqin''s heart in an instant, but also Qingqing. Qingqing''s nose is a little sour, and her eyes are filled with a layer of water mist. She looks at Star holding Shi Shaoqin and thinks... Star is worthy of Qin Shao''s unparalleled love in the world. What a warm-hearted child it is to say such warm-hearted reward requirements?! Although Star asked for a reward, it''s the same as none. The child''s world is simple and beautiful. Shi Shaoqin didn''t want to destroy star''s beauty. Naturally, he agreed to his request. The dinner was cooked by Shi Shaoqin himself. It was an extra reward for star to finish the task earlier than him. It was not until Shi Shaoqin accompanied star to dinner, walked and coaxed him to sleep that Qing Qing said, "Qin Shao, without your permission, I took photos of star and his sister." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly. "However, it was secretly taken, and Jane Mo didn''t know." Qingqing hurriedly said, "just took a picture of star and Yan Yan tied to the wrist of the gift and sent a picture to Jane mo." Shi Shaoqin stood up and Qingqing clearly gave him his mobile phone. He looked at the group photo of star and Yan Yan and gradually deepened his eyes As Beichen said, he owed him a little Yan... This debt, he can''t pay it back, but he has to pay it back! With his fingers sliding, Shi Shaoqin looked at the picture taken by Qing Qing, and finally stopped on the picture of two small hands lifting slightly and exposing two stones on his wrist The agate stone was polished by Mo''er and Beichen, and Mo''er personally gave it to star. It was a gift from his biological parents, so he never let star take it down, so now star subconsciously attaches great importance to this gift. As for the topaz in the hands of Beichen and Mo''er''s daughter Shi Shaoqin''s eyes gradually became deep. The yellow topaz is the birthstone of November, which represents star''s blessing to his sister. The most important thing is that the color of this topaz is very similar to the color of sunflowers planted by star... Especially the natural patterns on it. Mo''er, selfishly left star by my side. I can only use this way to let star "accompany" you ¡­¡­ Huakang hospital. One by one, he Yining sat by the hospital bed and said with a smile, "Mom, I went to Spencer today. I went with Xiao Jie." She looked at Li Yunze, raised her eyebrows and said, "I still see the teacher who taught me violin today." Li Yunze stopped wiping him Yining and looked at him one by one. One by one glanced down, hummed in his nose, looked at he Yining, and deliberately said, "I know now. What does the BB on the violin my father gave me mean?" Li Yunze asked with a smile, "Dad, is the routine deep?" "Yes..." wrinkled his small nose one by one. "You told me in this way. If I blame you for not confessing to me, you can say I''m stupid and didn''t find it!" Li Yunze was amused by his daughter''s lovely appearance, "it was inconvenient for me to say..." One by one, xiaoaojiao glanced down, grabbed he Yining''s hand and told her about going to Spencer today. Li Yunze looked at he Yining quietly, and his sight became deeper and deeper. Yining, you and one by one were waiting for me Now, it''s me and one by one waiting for you. Would you like to wake up quickly and make sure you don''t wait too long? He sighed quietly. He really hopes that after Yining''s injury is cured, he can wake up when he is transferred out of the ICU "One by one, you talk to your mother first. I''ll deal with these. Let''s have supper together." "Good!" One by one smiled and nodded, watched Li Yunze leave the intensive care unit, and then looked back at he Yining. "Mom, dad doesn''t look as handsome as before, and he has lost a lot of weight... I think he must be worried about you." One by one, he Yining put his face on his hand, looked ahead and opened his mouth slowly when he emptied himself: "Mom, can I take a family photo before I go to school? Will you wake up before I go to school?" Chapter 1621 After waiting for a while, she gently sighed, "I knew you wouldn''t answer me..." she leaned down, sat up straight, fanned her big eyes, looked at why Ning, smiled and said, "Mom, it''s about to celebrate the new year. It''s the first time for me to celebrate the new year with mom and Dad!" One by one, his face was full of laughter, his elbows were propped on the bed, his hands were in the shape of petals, holding his cheeks, and continued to chat with he Yining. "Mom, I suddenly thought... When we just returned to Los Angeles, I asked you with my father''s report. How did you look calm and pretend not to know him with me?" "Also, I heard from Aunt Yanyan that your story of chasing your father was very thrilling! Would you like to tell me later..." "Hey, I don''t seem to feel very excited about anyone. I like it when I see handsome... Mom, you say you are so devoted. Why do I seem to be very playful?" One by one looked at he Yining, "it must be when you were pregnant with me. All kinds of prenatal education said... One by one, you must not have a special liking for only one boy, or work as hard as your mother... Well, it must be like this!" One by one, I was talking to my mother all the time. After Li Yunze handled the dressing for he Yining, he turned back and saw a smile on his face, gradually deepening his eyes. Having such a sensible and considerate daughter, he felt that it was not all his life abroad in the past three years, but what Yining taught before. Just imagine that once a rich family daughter, after family change, could not only be admitted to the medical school of Luoda, but also live alone in the East China Sea one by one. How strong faith does it take to do it? If you want to be closer to him, you are admitted to medical school of Los Angeles University. What about carrying one by one? Is it subconsciously with the hope of a family together? Yining, now such extravagant hopes have become a reality. Are you willing to choose to escape?! "One by one, I''m going to have supper..." Li Yunze said, taking back his thoughts. "OK." One by one, after looking back at Li Yunze, he looked at he Yining and said, "Mom, my father and I went to have supper... Don''t envy my physique that I won''t be fat no matter how I eat!" One by one got up and kissed he Yining on the face before leaving the ICU with Li Yunze. "One by one..." "Huh?" One by one, he looked at Li Yunze. Li Yunze looked at her and took her hand into the elevator. "Wait, tell your father about you and your mother in the East China Sea?" She frowned one by one, "Dad, I was very young at that time, and I can''t remember how much..." Li Yunze smiled, "it''s all right. Just remember what you say!" "Then I''ll tidy up my thoughts first!" Nodded one by one. When he arrived at the restaurant, Li Yunze went to get the steamed eggs prepared one by one in advance, and then went to get some side dishes and porridge. "Well... It''s delicious!" One by one, Xiaolian ate steamed eggs with satisfaction. "Has mom ever eaten steamed eggs here? Mom likes steamed eggs best..." "Dad made it!" "Huh?!" Yi11 looked surprised. In a flash, he smiled clearly, "Oh... It seems that mom often eats it." Looking at the little girl''s big look, Li Yunze gently clicked her forehead, "you''re smart." "Yes!" One by one, Xiao proudly shook his body, "my mother used to say I was smart..." She ate another mouthful of steamed eggs, then turned her head and said, "since I have memory, my mother''s cooking is very delicious... Anyway, I like it very much." She grinned, "but I''ll occasionally make complaints about the improvement of my mother''s space." 111, with a little chin in her hands, she said, "well, I suddenly remembered... What I make complaints about when I cook her mother''s food." She wrung her eyebrows. "It seems to say who I am very similar to, just like when I dislike her... Dad, it''s you who won''t say? However, from the steamed eggs you make, mom is really not a horizontal line with you!" Li Yunze lowered his eyes and smiled, remembering why he would rather cook for him before "In the past, Yining couldn''t cook. It was terrible." Li Yunze raised his eyes and looked at one by one. "Later, after being despised by me for several times, she always used the food made by the domestic servant to say what she made... She didn''t want to deceive me." "I''m afraid my father dislikes her!" A clear look. Li Yunze smiled, "you continue." One by one, thinking and talking about things in the East China Sea. Because of the limitation of her age, she didn''t have much memory at that time, and it was basically all about heyining''s daily life However, Li Yunze listened very carefully. On the one hand, he wants to know about Yihe Yining in Donghai city. On the other hand... He wants to know that woman because of what he has done. "Well, that''s all you can remember!" One by one, some people are not gluttonous enough to look at the empty steamed egg bowl, "Dad, can you make two bowls tomorrow?" She raised her eyes and said with a bright smile, "I''ll help my mother eat a bowl!" Looking at his daughter''s little thought, Li Yunze felt warm in his heart. "OK..." Li Yunze nodded, "in line with the characteristic that a daughter should be spoiled and raised, respond to every request!" "What a shame!" A cold hissing voice came from behind. Li Yunze and looked at them one by one and saw Gu Beichen coming to have a snack with J and Jian Jie. "Little uncle," he said, looking at J''s eyebrows one by one, "if my father dotes on my daughter, it''s called immorality. If my uncle dotes on my niece... It''s immorality?!" Li Yunze and Gu Beichen looked at each other and smiled at each other. "My elders don''t care about you!" J was in a bad mood. After making a face at J one by one, he quickly greeted Jian Jie, "Xiao Jie, Xiao Jie, you''re just here..." and pushed his plate to Jian Jie. Just when Li Yunze and Gu Beichen thought they were kind enough to give Jian Jie what they ate one by one, Jian Jie''s handsome little face had no choice, "Li Xinyao, why haven''t you changed your eating problem after going abroad for three years?" "Born, how to change it?" Innocent face. Jane Jay was sitting on the side of the table, and make complaints about the carrot and celery on the plate. "You eat first, I''ll take the tray later, and you are giving it to me!" One by one, he made a ''OK'' gesture and happily pulled the plate to himself. Li Yunze and Gu Beichen looked at each other again. One eye crossed with a smile, and the other was deep. "Tut tut..." J turned to get the food and said in a teasing voice, "Alas, this love... It all has to start with a doll. No wonder qinshao is not an opponent!" Chapter 1622 Everyone looked at J. Li Yunze and Gu Beichen didn''t have any thoughts. It''s best to kiss each other. However, no one knows whether it''s Jian Jie or one by one, whether it''s a child, a classmate or a brother sister relationship... Just let it go. At the children''s table, Li Yunze and Gu Beichen went to the side to have coffee. "What are you worried about?" Gu Beichen saw through what was hidden under Li Yunze''s slightly condensed vision. "What am I worried about, you don''t know?" Li Yunze was dissatisfied. Gu Beichen''s thin lips raised a faint smile, "one by one is not Yining, and Xiaojie is not you." "..." Li Yunze twitched uncontrollably at the corners of his mouth because of Gu Beichen''s words. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Jie and sat down opposite him one by one, frowning slightly, "I think it''s me that should worry!" "Huh?" Li Yunze didn''t understand. "Xiaojie''s temperament is a little persistent, but now it seems to jump off very..." Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was slightly deep and sighed, "forget it, manage the children''s affairs by yourself... No one knows what it will be like when you grow up." "That''s true." Li Yunze smiled, "but I''m relieved to marry you one by one." Whether it''s Beichen or Jianmo, they will really be their daughters one by one. There will never be any so-called problems in "getting along with mother-in-law and daughter-in-law". ¡­¡­ When Zhang Nian returned to Shuya, it was already more than 10 p.m. As a baby nurse for the little princess of Jian Mo, she is obviously much more relaxed and has time to take care of Yang Yi. "Aunt asleep?" Qiao Jinnian glanced at the ward. Zhang Nian smiled and nodded. "After a few words with her, she fell asleep." "Why don''t you go back and have a rest earlier?" "I''m afraid I went to work on Paradise night and slept late. I''m not sleepy at this point..." Qiao Jinnian looked at the time. "I have an hour to hand over my shift. If you don''t mind, accompany me to have a snack and I''ll take you back?" "OK, I''ll treat you!" Seeing what Qiao Jinnian wanted to say, Zhang Nian hurriedly said, "if the senior refuses, I won''t go." Qiao Jinnian smiled helplessly and nodded, "OK!" After the shift handover, Qiao Jinnian took Zhang Nian to have a snack. It was eaten at a nearby stall. I ordered some barbecue and copied two dishes. It was economical and tasted good. "I haven''t been so relaxed for a long time. I feel I can eat a lot." Zhang Nian said with a satisfied face. "From knowing you to now, this is your most relaxed moment!" Qiao Jinnian smiled. Zhang Nian was a little embarrassed. Qiao Jinnian knew her very well. She didn''t look down on her because she went to heaven night to serve wine. She also helped take care of her mother. She was really grateful. "Senior, don''t be polite to me..." Zhang Nian said. "Although I''m not very rich, I want to express my gratitude in the same way." "You''re welcome!" Qiao Jinnian doesn''t want to distance himself too far from Zhang Nian. Naturally, he won''t let himself and her see the outside world. Most importantly, Chu Zixiao is a strong opponent. If he is too relaxed, it is easy to Miss Zhang Nian. The two talked and laughed and ate until more than 1 a.m. Qiao Jinnian sent Zhang Nian back to the community where she rented her house. Just as she was about to get off, he thought for a moment and still shouted to her, "Xiao Nian!" "Huh?" Zhang Nian listened to the action of opening the door and looked at Qiao Jinnian suspiciously. Qiao Jinnian was a little nervous because his swallowing Adam''s apple rolled up and down. "That......" Qiao Jinnian took a breath secretly. "Xiaonian, I want to be with you, OK?" Zhang Nian suddenly lost his mind. "I know it''s a little abrupt to tell you this now, but I don''t want to miss the opportunity." Qiao Jinnian said with sincerity on his face, "it''s not easy to meet the right person in the vast sea of people... I don''t want to miss the most suitable person because of my hesitation and hesitation." "Senior students..." "I know that the person in your heart is Chu Zixiao." Qiao Jinnian simply said, "I also know that there are obstacles between you and him that are horizontal in the middle and can''t be crossed..." Zhang Nian gradually pricked her lips and hurt her eyes. "You can think I''m taking advantage of this," Qiao Jinnian continued. "But when love comes, if you want to be polite, won''t life leave regrets?" He laughed at himself, "Xiaonian, I don''t want to leave regrets in my life, even if the final result is not what I want." Zhang Nian lowered her eyes, "senior, thank you... But I..." "I don''t want you to answer me now!" Qiao Jinnian looked at Zhang Nian and smiled, "I just want to tell you that I want to officially start pursuing you, whether your heart will finally belong to me or not." Firm words are indisputable. Zhang Nian raised her eyes to Qiao Jinnian, bit her lower lip and smiled with self mockery. "Senior, I''m not worth..." she said nothing. She turned and opened the door and got out of the car. Qiao Jinnian also got out of the car and said to Zhang Nian''s back, "love is not measured by value... I like you. This condition is enough for my heart to be with you!" Zhang Nian''s footsteps stopped. Finally, he didn''t look back and strode to the corridor Whether it''s Chu Zixiao or Qiao Jinnian, Zhang Nian knows now that she won''t get close. Some things can''t be crossed, and some people can only be beautiful dreams... Can''t be close! ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao rubbed his swollen temples, and his face was a little tired. "It''s time for the Chinese new year, and there''s such a difficult case." Tang Yu reluctantly put a cup of coffee in front of Chu Zixiao, "how are you and Zhang Nian going these days?" "No progress, if it is progress..." Chu Zixiao drank a cup of coffee to refresh himself. "Oh, tell me about you. Why is your emotional road so bumpy?" Tang Yu was amused. Chu Zi Xiao, who had seen his friend in the eyes, rose to the window and looked at the old Wutong tree that had fallen off in winter. He said slowly, "after I have gone through a detour, I know the way I want to go." he smiled and laughed at himself. "It is estimated that EQ is too low." "I think so. Your EQ is occupied by IQ." Tang Yu sighed, "but ah, fortunately, you wake up early." Chu Zi Xiao raised his hand, drank coffee and looked at the Wutong tree outside. The tree looked a little lonely in the light of the office. Just as he is now He doesn''t know whether his awakening can change back to the last companionship, but as Mo Mo said... He always has to work hard, doesn''t he? Chapter 1623 "It''s getting late. Let''s go!" Chu Zixiao took back his thoughts and turned around. "When the court is over, you can arrange for the staff of the law firm to take turns before the year!" "Well, good!" Tang Yu gets up and leaves the office with Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao drove his car to the direction of the apartment. Along the way, the newly hung lights on the trees twinkled, which illuminated the whole night very brightly. He suddenly pulled over and looked at the road as if he couldn''t see the end. With all kinds of lights on, he gradually lost his mind. In the past, when pursuing foam in school, he seemed to have a good EQ Since when did he forget how to love? Did you break up with him from Momo? Or... Because of his love, hurt Mo Mo?! Chu Zixiao''s vision is gradually deep and bottomless. It seems that there is a vortex buried in the bottom of his eyes, gradually breaking his thoughts and reshaping them! After a while, Chu Zixiao slowly took back his thoughts, looked at the flashing lights on the roadside, and smiled slightly at the corners of his mouth It''s not the problem that embarrasses us, but ourselves, isn''t it?! Chu Zixiao took back his sight, sent a text message to Zhang Nian, started the car again, and walked slowly on the road late at night At this moment, he enjoyed relaxation, as if he had instantly returned to his original feeling on campus. It is a kind of beauty full of fantasy and purity of expectation Early the next morning, when the genius was bright, Zhang Nian woke up. She got up to cook porridge before going to wash. When everything was ready, she took her mobile phone and wanted to see what interesting news was. When she went to the hospital, she could share it with her mother. But as soon as you open it, you will see a message unread. Open Chu Zixiao: I went home after working overtime and walked through the street near the pedestrian street. Looking at the tranquility and flashing lights all over the night, I have never had tranquility in recent years. Over the years, I have pursued, disappointed... Suffered and lost, but I have never felt peaceful. And my mood at this moment, just want to share with you... Good night! Want to love your Zixiao! Zhang Nian looked at the text message. His nose was sour and his eyes turned red in an instant. Some people put it deep in their hearts. When you don''t touch, you think everything doesn''t matter But when you find that a touch of emotion can touch the deepest pain in your heart, you know that some things, some people... Maybe you can''t put it down in your life, but you can only hurt. The sound of "poop poop" came, but Zhang Nian didn''t feel at all. It was not until the sound of overflowing pot became louder and louder that she suddenly reacted First, she looked at the screen that had been dark for a long time. She quickly turned around and went to the kitchen. After turning off the fire, she cleaned the stove. Sitting on the subway, Zhang Nian held the insulation box in one hand and the handrail in the other hand, shaking with the amplitude of the subway. Whether it''s Qiao Jinnian''s confession last night or Chu Zixiao''s text message seen this morning, it''s like two hands constantly tearing her nerves. She is a woman who will hand over to Chu Zixiao by abnormal means for the first time. How does she accept Qiao Jinnian? Besides, there are other men in her heart?! How can she be with Chu Zixiao because of Zhang Jia? Hehe Zhang Nian suddenly pulled off the corners of his mouth with self mockery. His nose was very sour, but he could only hold back his sadness. Is the past life too casual and happy? So now she''s going to "enjoy" sadness! "Arrive ahead..." When the broadcast came to the station in the subway, Zhang Nian took a deep breath and depressed her inner sadness. At the moment of getting off the subway, there was only no strong emotion on her face. After breakfast with Yang Yi, Zhang Nian went to Huakang. When the talent got out of the elevator, he heard the voice of discussion from the nurse station intermittently Zhang Nian is not a gossip, but when it comes to himself, it''s hard to act as if he didn''t hear anything. "I''m really curious. You said... When Zhang Nian came to practice, she suddenly joined the VIP as a nurse. After all, she did well in school and had a letter of recommendation specially written by the school professor... But after walking for so long, when she suddenly came back, she could still be a baby nurse for president Gu''s child?!" "The same person has different lives..." someone sighed, "think about me. I have excellent grades in school. After coming to Huakang for internship, I also climbed up from the bottom step by step. It has been many years before I was transferred to the VIP Building." "Me too. I''ve been up for five years!" "We''ve been here for at least three years, haven''t we?" "You don''t understand... No matter how Zhang Nian did during his internship, he took care of Chu Zixiao! Who is Chu Zixiao? The only successor of Chu''s group, the nephew of President Gu, is also a famous criminal defense in Los Angeles... Whether it''s himself or his family background, which one is not coveted?" "Yes, I heard that Zhang Nian can be president Gu''s baby nurse, which is recommended by lawyer Chu!" "Alas, who..." "Hey!" Suddenly, someone gave a warning and motioned. The crowd looked at Zhang Nian, some with a sneer and others with an embarrassment. Zhang Nianzhe lips down, came forward and said: "the internship can come to VIP, partly because of the recommendation of the professor, and partly because I was assigned to take care of lawyer Chu because I had to hand in a paper on taking care of vegetative people." She paused and continued, "about leaving Huakang, something happened at home. Now I come to be the baby nurse of President Gu''s child. I really owe it to lawyer Chu and Mrs. Gu''s pity and care." Everyone looked a little strange. They didn''t expect that Zhang Nian would say this calmly. "That''s it. I can understand what you talk about me." Zhang Nian continued, "but I don''t want me to be the topic of your mouth all the time, because everyone has the right to live because of hard work!" Words fall, Zhang Nianzhe down the corner of his mouth, and walked to Jian Mo''s room Her back is straight. She always has a clear conscience. In this life, the only thing she has done that will make her feel guilty all her life is the night with Chu Zixiao... Nothing else! Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian''s thin back and looked distressed. She is strong, so when taking care of him, she always believes that he can wake up. And he hurt her because she woke up! But the mistake is not hers, is it?! Walking forward, Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian''s words, and some nurses who couldn''t respond took back their sight after one look. Looking at Zhang Nian entering the room, he said: "those who can enter the VIP floor seem to be carefully selected... And you just talked about the behavior of what happened in the VIP floor." he deliberately paused, looked at the nurses whose faces changed suddenly, and slowly opened his mouth, "it''s enough for you to leave Huakang!" Chapter 1624 Chu Zixiao ignored the nurses, who suddenly became like a color palette, and walked to Jian mo In this world, there are always people who belittle others to satisfy themselves. No matter where they are, they can''t be avoided. Naturally, he won''t meddle in Huakang''s affairs, but... He doesn''t want to see Zhang Nian said. Early in the morning, there were a lot of people here. Although everyone assigned whose house would cook soup and deliver rice, they couldn''t resist the temptation of the little princess. Everyone always came to see the little princess in the space that didn''t disturb Jian Mo''s rest. "Zhang Nian did these professionally..." Cen Lanxi smiled at Zhang Nian and said to Jian mo. "Mom feels so picky. Xiaonian, don''t worry. I didn''t mean to praise you?" Jane Mo got out of bed and moved her body slightly. She had been lying down, a little stiff. "Xiao Mo, come and have soup first." Lu Hanyu greeted Jian mo. up to now, she mentioned that her son Su Jun left. Unfortunately, she didn''t get Xiaomo''s heart after more than four years of company. "Yes." Jane Mo smiled and walked slowly. "Eh, Zixiao is coming!" CEN Lanxi was surprised to see Chu Zixiao standing at the door. Zhang Nian''s hand changing diapers for the little princess stopped slightly, but it was just a moment. She continued her hand as if she hadn''t heard anything. Can not respond, not only can not give their own hope, also can not give Chu Zixiao hope. If an ending is doomed to sadness, then... Let her be the bad guy! "Have you had breakfast?" "Because there''s no one in the room to drink," Jane said deliberately "I didn''t have a baby, so I don''t need tonic!" Chu Zixiao put down the food box in his hand. "Mom cooked it last night. Let me bring it when I go to the law firm." Jane froth down, and secretly Tucao: what, by the way, I think you are right. Zhang Nian almost came over, make complaints about it! I think so in my heart, but Jian Mo has been with Gu Beichen for a long time. He always thinks a set in his heart and makes a set on his face. "When I just got married with ah Chen, my elder sister often shouted to eat... Now that I have a child, my elder sister cooks soup in person three or four days a week. I''m almost embarrassed to eat." Jane was joking. "What''s wrong with your family?" CEN Lanxi tilted his eyes. "Sorry, you can eat more. You look better after a few days. You don''t see any meat at all." "When you grow meat, you have to think about losing weight." Jian Mo gets along well with Cen Lanxi now. She can joke occasionally. She is a smart woman. No matter what happened in the past, she is a family now. The relationship between her and Cen Lanxi has a direct impact on the mood of her family. "It''s all right. Beichen would like to be fat." CEN Lanxi smiled and stared at Jian Mo, "why don''t you eat long meat? It''s estimated that you are weak. Go back and let Yunze have a good look and see how to make it up!" "I think so..." Lu said, "Xiaomo didn''t grow much meat when she was pregnant, and Yan Yan was not born lightly. But she didn''t absorb this nutrition at all." The two mothers immediately found a topic and began to discuss how to make up for Jane mo. Jane Mo has some helplessness, but her heart is full of happiness. Sometimes, only when you let go of yourself and others can you reap the greatest happiness. She looked and read, and sighed secretly If she still loves Zixiao, I hope she can let go of herself and Zixiao, and then harvest a happiness. The room is filled with a warm atmosphere every day. But at this moment, Dudu J''s face was a little out of place with the atmosphere in the room. Listening to the monitoring sound from the headset, J sneered at the corner of his mouth. Meng Yi, that''s all you are! J pulled off the headset, manipulated it on the mobile phone screen for several times, and cut off the monitoring device. ¡­¡­ Time passes day by day, and the smell of the new year becomes "smellable" everywhere as the time of the new year gets closer and closer. Jian Mo began to give birth to the little princess and went home after living in Huakang for half a month. Such a large villa can hold many people. Now, more and more people come to rob the little princess with President Gu, Jian Jie and j every day. The three men, large, medium and small, show strong dissatisfaction and dislike the visitors. Unfortunately, the people who came didn''t see it one by one and ignored it all "Hey, have you found that the color pattern of this Topaz on Yan Yan''s hand is very interesting?" Gu Nanyi held Yan Yan in his arms and said, "it''s a little dark in the middle. Because of the luminous effect of the cutting surface, it looks like a blooming sunflower." "Really?" Jane Mo came forward with a confused voice and looked at the topaz for a while. "I didn''t find it if the third sister didn''t say it. The more she said it, the more she looked at it." Jane Mo looked at Topaz in a daze and frowned slightly. I don''t know why, she suddenly remembered that when she was in the ink palace, President Gu gave her sunflower seeds and wanted to plant sunflowers How can you think of something that you can''t hit with eight poles?! "This really should be Yan Yan''s nickname. There is sunshine, vitality... Colorful appearance!" Gu Nanyi said with a smile, "Xiaomo, this friend, is really intentional." Jane Mo smiled and didn''t speak, but her heart waded through the complex emotions that couldn''t be said clearly. It seems that there is something she needs to find the answer, but she thinks hard and feels nervous. Maybe it''s just a coincidence After all, the yellow topaz is easy to look like a sunflower under the reflection after cutting the surface. ¡­¡­ Star happily clapped his hands, stamped his feet and followed Shi Shaoqin on the beach. Shi Shaoqin was a little helpless, but the little guy had a good time. He didn''t stop. He was walking at a speed that star could keep up, but at a distance. The mobile phone vibrated, and Shi Shaoqin took it out and looked at it. Star suddenly stopped and looked at the mobile phone in Shi Shaoqin''s hand. He blinked and said softly, "stone phone, star drink water!" Shi Qin nodded, "OK, little smile!" Star shook his head with a smile and turned to Qingqing. Shi Shaoqin waited for star to walk away a little distance before answering the phone. "Qin Shao, the police have completed the handover and will be sent to Los Angeles prison in about an hour." The head of Mo palace Los Angeles asked, "when do you start?" Shi Shaoqin''s eyes narrowed slightly and slowly opened his mouth: "do it in the evening." "Good!" Shi Shaoqin looked across star, who was drinking water under the sunshade, and his voice was always calm, with a trace of coldness: "since you have done it, let''s do it together... Buy one and get one free. Although there is some loss, you can also ask Li Yunze for a favor." Chapter 1625 The iron door was opened with a bang. "Go in!" The prison guard coldly looked at Meng Yi, who was on crutches, and gave a sign in his eyes to the next prison guard. The receiving prison guard nodded slightly, motioned clearly, signed on the receipt, and asked the two small prison guards behind him to take the person away. "Just close to number 4." The prison guard said indifferently. The two little prison guards answered, looked at each other and took Meng Yi away clearly 4 this number, in many places, is equivalent to "death"! Especially in places like prisons, "4" has become a taboo. Generally, if you don''t expect to go out or have any special treatment, you will be locked up there Very simple, anyway, there is no chance to see the outside world. It is equivalent to how to release yourself in the case of death. From the moment Meng Yi was arrested, he never thought he would be better. In their business, they seek wealth and wealth Once you fall, you will come to a tragic end. He will not fantasize that he will escape. After all, Li Yunze has Gu Beichen around him! It is said that he is the only one who escaped in Mo palace within three months! "Yo, it''s been a long time since new people came in. Why did you put one in today?" "Aren''t you bored?" A prison guard said directly to the speaker in front of Meng Yi, "no, I''m afraid you''re too energetic. If you turn back and make a mess, I''ll send you a fresh one." The man got up and came over with a toothpick in his mouth. First, he looked up and down at Meng Yi. With a "poof", he spat the toothpick on Meng Yi''s face. "Looks like... No play?!" "Kobayashi, it''s not delicious to eat something else." Another guard said coldly. The man who was called Xiaolin shrugged, "it''s also..." paused, "brothers, let''s help. We can''t let our two prison guards send people in by ourselves?!" "Brother Lin, come now!" Someone answered. Suddenly, several people came forward and dragged Meng Yi into the cell without tenderness. Kobayashi glanced back and made a noise in his mouth, asking everyone to ''be careful'' while taking back their eyes and lowering their voice, "what do you want?" The two guards first coughed, and then one of them lowered his voice and said, "wait for dinner." "Good!" Kobayashi answered, "what does Qin Shao say?" "Play slowly!" "OK..." Kobayashi''s voice became louder. "You two walk slowly. As for people, I will not bully... After all, there is one less dead here, and I am imprisoned for life. It''s boring!" "Come on, don''t be poor. Don''t blame me for being rude if the last thing happens again." "Ha ha!" Kobayashi laughed loudly. Like that, it doesn''t matter. The two prison guards didn''t seem to want to tangle with Kobayashi. They looked at him coldly and turned away from the cell. Meng Yi is very quiet. He is not an innocent person. Naturally, he will not do fantasy things. In the dark world for so many years, he has arranged and fished people in prison. In fact, he knows the way here. Xiao Lin sat down opposite Meng Yi and stretched out his hand. Someone had put a cigarette in his hand. Someone on the other side also took a lighter and was ready to light a cigarette for him. "Would you like one?" "No, I don''t smoke. I only peel apples." Meng Yi''s voice was quite calm. "Peel apples?" Kobayashi smiled. "I like it too... That feeling is the feeling of cutting the head, tut tut." his body trembled with excitement, "cool!" Meng Yi brushed a smile across the corner of his mouth and didn''t answer. "Man, which way?" Kobayashi showed a curious look. Meng Yi looked at the light from Xiaolin''s eyes and asked with a smile, "which way is brother Lin? What''s his last name? Long? Gu?" "No," Xiao Lin smiled innocuously, "my last name..." he paused deliberately. When he picked his eyebrow, he slowly restrained his smile and spit out a word in a gloomy way, "stone!" Meng Yi was still in a tense mood. When he heard that Xiao Lin''s surname was "Shi", his face suddenly became frightened. Kobayashi appreciated Meng Yi''s expression very much. He took a cigarette and spit the smoke on his face. After making a "tut tut" sound, he slowly said, "what''s the matter? This surname disappoints you?" "How is that possible?!" Meng Yi''s eyes widened. Kobayashi slightly tilted his head and shook his head after thinking about it. "Yes, how is it possible?" He said something and smiled at Meng Yi, still looking harmless. "Think slowly. If you can think of why after dinner, remember to tell me that I''ll make you comfortable for a few more days!" Kobayashi patted Meng Yi''s face, got up and motioned to the people to make a small fight first. At the same time The women''s prison also welcomed one. Whether it was unknown or expected, prison guards and prisoners were surprised to see Qu Weiwei coming back so soon. "Tut Tut, how many days have you been out? Not only is it so tragic, but also has you come in again?" Wang Xia looked at Qu Weiwei with a smile, looked up and down at the circle, and finally fell on her cheek with a piece of gauze on her face, "is this disfigured?!" Qu Weiwei clenched her hand and didn''t speak. Wang Xia looked at her without the arrogance when she first came in, but it was obvious that she was still unconvinced! "Alas, I miss you very much after you leave. After all, there is no one as fun as you." Wang Xia smiled, "welcome back!" She said, holding out her hand in a very "friendly" way. Qu Weiwei naturally won''t shake hands with her, and she knows that Wang Xia won''t let her go anyway Since the demerit is the same, why should she be soft? However, what Qu Weiwei didn''t expect at the moment was that she thought too simply about her next prison career. In the past three years, such torture was not torture at all! ¡­¡­ "Grandpa, what''s this?" "Grandpa, can I eat this?" "Grandpa..." One by one, I lay curiously in front of a pile of traditional Chinese medicine, asking this one and that one. Li Jiyuan smiled all the time and explained to his granddaughter patiently. See what she is interested in, I will say a few more words. "It''s amazing..." when Li Jiyuan talked about the pharmacology of some herbs one by one, his eyes glittered with serious light. "Are you interested in traditional Chinese medicine?" Li Jiyuan asked. "I''m very interested now, but I don''t know later." One by one, she looked at Li Jiyuan. "My father is a doctor, my mother is a doctor, and my grandfather is a professor in the medical school... Well," she thought, "Grandpa, do you think I''ll study medicine in the future?" Chapter 1626 Li Jiyuan put down his traditional Chinese medicine and motioned for the next one. One by one, Li Jiyuan picked him up and sat on his lap. "One by one, are you very interested in medicine, or are you interested because your father and mother are both doctors?" Li Jiyuan asked kindly. One by one, after thinking about Grandpa''s eyes, she said seriously, "in fact, I can''t tell clearly now..." she said with a small pink mouth, "because I knew my father and mother were doctors before, but I didn''t know my father was my father at that time." Li Jiyuan has heard about 11 from Li Yunze these two days, and nodded clearly about 11. "My father tried his best to protect me from the car accident, but my father tried his best to protect my nose one by one..." my father said "So now you''re a little confused about whether this is what you want or what your father and mother want... Right?" Li Jiyuan asked softly. Nod one by one. Li Jiyuan had some dry palms, gently held the tender hands one by one, and slowly said, "one by one, where''s the Li family? It''s a medical family... But look, my aunt, didn''t she start a company without interest in medicine?" Nod one by one. "Although, Grandpa hopes that his children and grandchildren can carry forward the achievements of Li family in medicine..." Li Jiyuan''s voice is full of earnest words from the elderly, "but I hope that children can choose what they like and take the road they can choose." Listen carefully one by one and look at Li Jiyuan''s line of sight without blinking. "So, if one likes medicine, Grandpa, father and mother will be happy..." Li Jiyuan nodded one''s forehead and said spoiled, "but if one likes violin, painting, or... Like some others, Grandpa, father and mother also support it, okay?" Nodding one by one, "my father also said that I can develop freely, just by my own heart." "Yes!" Li Jiyuan smiled and shook one by one, "one by one is so assertive, as long as you know what you want! Li family, you don''t need any blessing now..." One by one kissed Li Jiyuan, "but Grandpa, I''m really curious about your things at the moment!" "It''s all right. When you''re curious, Grandpa will explain to you..." Li Jiyuan was elated by the kiss one by one. "You''re the youngest student since Grandpa went back to school to teach!" "Hee hee!" One by one, I was very happy. "Is Grandpa happy?" "Happy..." Li Jiyuan ordered his little nose one by one again. "I''m happy with Grandpa one by one!" "One by one is also very happy!" One by one said sweetly, "because now there are not only father and mother, but also Grandpa, aunt and uncle!" "Professor Li, your granddaughter is so sweet!" Another professor came out of the laboratory with a look of envy. The smile on Li Jiyuan''s face was full of pride. He has been thinking about his children and having grandchildren for many years, but he can''t behave like Jinxi. Now suddenly there is such a big granddaughter. She is so beautiful in her heart. She is stuffed with a big handful of sugar. After the school was busy years ago, Li Jiyuan took him back to the hospital one by one. The Chinese New Year is coming in a week. The whole city of Los Angeles has been decorated with joy. "What would you like to eat one by one in the evening?" Li Jiyuan asked in his car. "Dad said that he would go to the hospital canteen to make steamed eggs for me and fry some specialty dishes for me..." one by one, he proudly raised his eyebrows. Li Jiyuan pretended to be jealous and said, "think of me, an old man. I''ve never eaten a meal specially cooked by my son in my life... Hey, no wonder the saying goes, my son has a daughter-in-law and forgets his parents!" "It doesn''t matter. If my son forgets, my granddaughter won''t forget!" Pick eyebrows one by one, "Grandpa, I have a cooking class next semester... Next time I come back, cook for Grandpa one by one!" Emma! Li Jiyuan felt that his heart was suddenly warmed by his granddaughter At the end of the day, almost no child can be better than his granddaughter. Well, even his two sons and one daughter can''t be better than his granddaughter. Sure enough, the words of next generation parents are not bad at all. However, Li Jiyuan was coaxed too sweet one by one at the moment, and such sweetness did not withstand the tragedy of being born "unable to enter" the kitchen one by one. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze just changed the medicine for he Yining and saw Fang Xiran leaning against the wall. In that way, she looked heroic in front of her soldiers? "What are you doing?" Li Yunze glanced at him with disgust. "Jin shaosi has strengthened you? You look like you can''t love!" "If he robbed me, I would buy firecrackers to celebrate. Can I have no love?" Fang Xiran said without shame. "Oh, that is, you wash yourself and send it to someone else''s mouth, and they don''t eat it!" Li Yunze said venomously. Fang Xi ran stared discontentedly, suddenly got up with his eyes turned, subconsciously looked around to see if there was anyone, and then lowered his voice and asked, "Li Yunze, do you have that kind of Medicine... That is, the kind that makes Jin shaosi confused after taking it?" Li Yunze glanced sideways at Fang Xiran. "Otherwise, it''s the kind..." Fang Xiran thought slightly, "Oh, it''s the kind of person who will fall in love with the first person who falls asleep after eating and opens his eyes?" "Retarded!" Li Yunze can''t stand the sound of Tucao, "Fang Xi ran, you put these in your head, I really doubt how you make complaints about others." "I have enough EQ!" Fang Xi ran raised his eyebrows. "The problem is that I''m not intelligent enough!" "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth and didn''t bother to talk to her. "Hey, hey, don''t go!" Fang Xiran followed, "seriously, you can give me any of these two drugs? Just pay me back... Tell me, you always owe me a favor last time?" "You did it to protect national interests!" "I also have personal help... Li Yunze, you can''t cross the river and tear down the bridge." "I have a brother who has crossed rivers and broken bridges. I''m very easy to learn." "..." Fang Xiran stopped and looked at Li Yunze''s Rogue look of "I''ll cross the river and tear down the bridge, what can you do to me", a little gnashing his teeth. "Hey, just be a private person and help me die!" Fang Xiran gnashed his teeth. Li Yunze stopped, looked back and said seriously, "the love obtained from the medicine is not love!" He didn''t say much, so he turned around and wanted to go to the canteen to prepare dinner for them one by one. But just lift the step, the mobile phone rings When he heard what the people inside said, his face changed! Chapter 1627 "I''ll be right over!" After Li Yunze put down his words, he hurried to the laboratory in the hospital and walked with great strides. When the man arrived, looking at the dignified expression of the people, he twisted his eyebrows and asked, "what''s going on?" "I just cleaned the system regularly and found a hidden file missing..." the technician said. "We checked it. It was a drug analysis studied by Li Shao before." Li Yunze slightly twisted his eyebrows and suddenly crossed something in his mind? Here, he studied the ingredients of silence. Later, he found that progesterone hormone could be broken down, and then he studied it for a while. Although Jane Mo was all right at that time. But later, because he had to devote himself to the research of big brother, the follow-up research of silence also ran aground. But how can someone miss something for such a long time for no reason?! That thing, according to reason, should not be known by many people?! Li Yunze''s eyebrows tightened more and more. He always felt something strange. "Li Shao..." "Let''s put it on hold and I''ll deal with it later." Li Yunze didn''t say much. "Good!" Li Yunze nodded and explained. When he went out, he called Gu Beichen. "Huh?" "If you''re free, come back to me." Li Yunze spoke. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, who was chatting with Zhang Nian about something mysteriously. "Well, I''ll be there in a minute." "I''m in the back kitchen of the restaurant. Come directly to me." "Good!" Li Yunze hung up the phone, pressed the down button of the elevator, looked at the closed elevator guard door, and gradually deepened his thoughts. For so long, is it Shi Shaoqin who is interested in silence? If such medicine doesn''t come out of the market, only Shi Shaoqin will ask for his research and analysis results? But what does he need that for now? The sound of "Ding" came, and the arrival of the elevator interrupted Li Yunze''s thoughts. He collected his thoughts, calmly stepped into the elevator and went to the back kitchen of the restaurant in the hospital. Gu Beichen came quickly. As a brother, sometimes many things don''t need to be said clearly, but you can feel the slowness of things. "You mean..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly. "Did Shi Shaoqin take away your later research on silence?!" Li Yunze nodded, "I study that, and only we know." Gu Beichen twisted his eyebrows, "let J come and see the path!" Li Yunze thought and nodded. Gu Beichen called J and told him what to check, "just see if it''s from Shaoqin?" "I''ve been away for several years. How do I know if he has anyone online recently?" J was cut off by the people in Mo palace because his first love just sprouted. It''s still the kind of cutting off that even if he is angry, it''s unreasonable. He''s sulking recently! "I didn''t ask you to track back!" Gu Beichen shook his head secretly. With J, he will be measured. Generally, if it involves the interests of Mo palace, he won''t let J get caught in the middle. "It''s all right, you let me track back this time, and I''m happy to..." J said with a little revenge. Gu Beichen felt something wrong with J, but he didn''t ask on the phone. He just said, "I''ll wait for your call!" "Yes!" J answered angrily, held his notebook and began to check. Before long, he replied to Gu Beichen: "Qin Shao doesn''t intend to hide at all. I''ll cut the picture and show it to you. See for yourself!" J just hung up and Gu Beichen received a wechat message. Well, recently, the children at home forced him to install wechat and told him not to use text messages all the time. Gu Beichen opens the message sent by J. the above is a screenshot, which is cut from the path. When Gu Beichen saw the string of characters on the screenshot, he snorted coldly, "naive!" "What is this?" Li Yunze also saw the screenshot and asked with a wrung eyebrow. Gu Beichen didn''t answer. He just installed his mobile phone and said indifferently, "he took it away. I know I''ll let J check the path and show off the demonstration!" "...." Li Yunze''s uncontrollable corners of his mouth twitched, which was really incomprehensible. Now Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin got along with each other. Why does he feel a strong childishness?! Li Yunze slightly twisted his eyebrows. Some people couldn''t imagine the childish appearance of Shi Shaoqin. They couldn''t help feeling that some people shook their bodies. "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen glanced at him. "I think the way you get along with Shi Shaoqin now is a little seeping..." Li Yunze felt unbearable emotion on his face. "..." Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes were slightly frozen and his face was slightly cold. "Why did he suddenly think of coming to me to get silence''s research?" Li Yunze was puzzled. Gu Beichen didn''t speak. He just guessed Shi Shaoqin''s mind and slowly opened his mouth: "it''s estimated that he has done something unbalanced. He always needs to ask for something back to show that he is not used by others!" Li Yunze immediately understood Gu Beichen''s meaning. Meng Yi''s side, Beichen means to ask shi Shaoqin to solve it. Then, it''s understandable to take something from him that is relatively useful to him. It''s just that Gu Beichen and Li Yunze think differently at the moment. Meng Yi was originally "promised" by Shi Shaoqin to deal with him, so now he asks for something from Yunze... Is he going to give away Qu Weiwei? ¡­¡­ "Seriously, the Li family is really good at pharmacological analysis." Xi Cheng sighed after reading Li Yunze''s research, "I feel that if Qin is less interested in this thing, I can improve it and use it in the future!" Shi Shaoqin gave him a cold look and didn''t speak. "I really want to know about Li Yunhao''s research." Xi Cheng said with a grin, glancing at Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin didn''t even look at him, but his voice was so inaudible that he said slowly, "you can get it." Xi Cheng grinned secretly, "what''s the use of taking what Qin Shao doesn''t want?" Shi Shaoqin glanced at him lightly and didn''t speak. Xi Cheng is a little angry. Naturally, he knows that because star is now in the Mo palace and has such a weakness, Qin Shao gives in to Gu Beichen In this world, one thing falls to another. At the beginning, Qin Shao saw Gu Beichen''s torture. Qin Shao had to pay it back "all his life". "Stone... Stone..." Just thinking, the excited voice of star came from far and near. Xi Cheng sighed secretly again. If there is a star, what if he wants to return it "all his life"? After all, the feeling of happiness and happiness can not be exchanged for material things. "Stone..." Star pushed the door open and rushed to Shi Shaoqin. Before standing still, he held up the bucket in his hand with a flattering face and wanted to do something But because of too much force, it couldn''t support the momentum at once, and then the tragedy happened Chapter 1628 With the sound of "Hua La", star''s bucket suddenly tilted, and half of the water and small fish and shrimp in it poured into his collar and generally spilled on Shi Shaoqin''s pants and shoes. There are shrimp and fish jumping on the ground. The scene is a little funny. Xi Cheng held it, and Qing Qing also tried to bear it Now people in Mo palace have a perception that as long as star is there, don''t go too far and won''t be punished by Shi Shaoqin. Of course, especially those close to star Once they find something wrong, they will pull star out as a shield. It''s not good to try! "Hee hee..." star probably knew that he was too impatient and made a mistake. First, he looked at the jumping fish and shrimp on the ground, then looked up at Shi Shaoqin, smiled at him, and shouted sweetly, "stone!" "..." Shi Shaoqin sighed a little. He was supposed to "teach a lesson", but in the face of star''s cute and good appearance, where can he "teach" the exit?! "Go and change!" Shi Shaoqin attached himself and picked up star. Regardless of the mess on the ground, it was called a light cloud and light wind. Xi Cheng and Qing Qing looked at each other, and both shrugged, indicating that they knew it was the result. "I''ll call someone to clean up." Qingqing looked at the mess on the ground and turned away. Xi Cheng smiled, shook his head and looked away at the data on the computer. He murmured, "a star is the world of Qin Shao... So what if he doesn''t know for a lifetime?" ¡­¡­ Los Angeles prison. It was dinner time, and both male and female prison inmates were lining up to eat. Kobayashi was shaking his body with his shoes, holding the plate, and moving his body with the beggar. When he came to a place where there was just half a dead corner of monitoring, Kobayashi quickly exchanged eyes with the dishes. Kobayashi was still in a casual manner. While handing the plate forward, the dish maker dug a spoon in the corner of the dish basin and put it on his plate. Kobayashi went to the table in his circle and quickly put away a sealed bottle from the dish under the cover of everyone. At the same time Everything is normal in the women''s prison. Qu Weiwei was very friendly surrounded by Wang Xia and others and ate at a table. However, the apples and some meat on her plate were soon swept away by Wang Xia and others, just as they had been in those three years. Qu Weiwei still has a wound that hasn''t healed. She can''t eat some things yet. She doesn''t care if they are taken away. Wang Xia glanced at a female prisoner who came to their side, sneered, and talked to Qu Weiwei to divert her attention. Suddenly "Ah!" Qu Weiwei shouted. She felt as if she had been suddenly stabbed by someone, and the pain of something being pushed came. However, because the person sitting next to her just touched her wound, she thought it was an illusion. Everything happened so fast that except those who knew it, others didn''t know what happened at all? "What''s the matter?" A prison guard stared, "if you can''t stop eating, don''t eat!" Qu Weiwei clenched her teeth and looked at the person who had just touched her. Her face was full of laughter. In that way, she was completely gloating. She pinched her chopsticks and took a breath secretly. She could only bear it. Wang Wei smiled coldly at the corner of her mouth. Wang Xia takes back her eyes and looks at Qu Weiwei. Although she doesn''t know how she got into trouble with that woman, she may be sure that... Qu Weiwei''s next life will be wonderful! Wonderful, she will be crazy ¡­¡­ The night in Los Angeles is getting quieter and quieter as the new year is approaching. I have to leave the hospital before the Chinese New Year. If I can, I won''t have to leave the hospital before the Chinese New Year Naturally, the hospital is much quieter than usual. After Li Yunze fell asleep one by one, he went to ICU again. Why Ning''s injury is heavier than Qu Weiwei. Because of the impact force, she was bounced onto the windshield and stuck between the steering wheel and Qu Weiwei. Reduce Qu Weiwei''s impact force. She bears most of it. However, under the careful care of Li Yunze, he Yining''s injuries outside have basically scabbed and began to recover. "Yining, the new year is coming in a week..." Li Yunze sat down on the chair beside the bed, wrapped he Yining''s hand in the palm of his hand and gently rubbed it with his finger. "Will you wake up and celebrate the new year with me?" Li Yunze leaned over slightly and gently fiddled with he Yining''s hair. "I feel a little distressed one by one. Her strong and hard smile makes me feel that I have failed." He sighed softly, "Beichen spent a year waiting for Jian Mo to wake up. They had only six or seven years of emotional foundation at that time... But there are nearly 20 years between us. Can you shorten the waking time?" "I can wait for you when you wake up, but I don''t know if I can bear you lying like this..." Li Yunze smiled with self mockery. "Originally, my strength is not as strong as one by one." Li Yunze closed his eyes and slowly attached himself to the body... Put his head to the side of he Yining and pretended to be sleeping with her. Time seems to be static, and the breath seems to gradually forget the flow. Almost every day, Li Yunze falls asleep one by one and comes back to accompany him for a while In other words, he Yining was asked to "accompany" him for a while. He once said that Beichen is immortal, but what about him?! Yeah! When so good Yining was around, he didn''t know how to cherish it at first, and then hurt her so much Now that she was finally "quiet", he realized how unaccustomed he was to such Yining. Yining should be energetic and never know how to shrink back. He''s so scared I''m afraid she will completely choose to escape because of his injury! A touch of boiling heat, words fell from the closed eyes, slowly winding down in the corners of the eyes and landed on the pillow Li Yunze''s temples trembled, and he was in the air, but his sadness spread in an instant. "Yining," Li Yunze slowly opened his eyes, his eyes moist and scarlet, "will you wake up quickly? Don''t let your daughter wait too long... Even if you wake up, you will punish me!" No one answered Li Yunze In the quiet space, only his voice floated in his ears. The kind of person who is obviously around, but can''t feel anything alone. It turns out that only when you personally experience it, can you know how sad and lonely it is. 11. Her small body leaned outside the ICU, and she couldn''t hear the sound inside. However, she knew that her father was talking with her mother inside. She knew two days ago that her father came to her mother every time she fell asleep. Hang your eyes one by one, and your small mouth tightly Mom, wake up quickly! Dad and I are waiting for you Chapter 1629 "One by one?!" There was a nurse''s way. After shouting in surprise, she asked, "haven''t you slept tonight?" One by one, after subconsciously looking at the closed door, he quickly put up a finger in front of his mouth. There was tension in his bright eyes. The nurse looked at the closed door and nodded clearly in her heart. One by one relieved his breath and walked forward with the nurse "Is Li Shao in there?" Asked the nurse. Nodding one by one, "well, I came secretly. Dad thought I was asleep." The nurse looked at the usually lively one by one painfully, sighed secretly, smiled and said, "I will keep a secret for you!" "Thank you, sister nurse." After smiling and thanking one by one, he looked back at the direction of ICU, said hello to the nurse and went to the lounge set up in Li Yunze''s office. Lying in bed, one by one in the dark, looking at the roof without blinking, what''s in your head? Dad should be under a lot of pressure, right? On the day of my mother''s car accident, my father seemed to collapse, and the scalpel was about to lose its grip One by one, he looked down and thought about what to do so that his father could be happier. However, after thinking about it, she felt that only when her mother woke up can her father be happy Alas! I turned my body one by one. In the room full of the smell of my father, it''s rare that I can''t sleep. The night is getting deeper and deeper. When everything was quiet and even the air was full of a peaceful smell, I kept thinking about how to make my father happy and make my mother wake up one by one. Finally, after a heavy fight with my eyelids, I gradually fell asleep. The door of the office was gently pushed open. Li Yunze came in with a gentle movement, afraid to disturb the little princess''s dream. When he came in, one by one the quilt had been kicked under the bed by her. Some helpless, but with a spoiled smile, Li Yunze attached himself, picked up the quilt and covered it one by one Looking at his daughter''s small face in her sleep, Li Yunze felt that this was his greatest comfort when he waited for Yining to wake up. His daughter''s forgiveness, his daughter''s support... And his daughter''s recognition made him feel warm. After kissing each other on the forehead, Li Yunze got up and left the lounge with a comforting smile on his mouth. Recently, if I don''t go back to sleep with my father, I will be with him in the hospital. The little girl who has lived abroad for three years makes him feel distressed. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles prison. Wang Xia was sleeping soundly. Suddenly, she was disturbed by some strange voice, which made her feel that the surrounding air became seeping. "What sound?" Someone shouted discontentedly. "Yes..." another voice came through the bleary under the irritability, "do you want people to sleep at night?" Wang Xia suddenly sat up and looked around with an ugly face. Finally, her eyes fell on Qu Weiwei. Qu Weiwei still lives on the bed near the toilet. Her voice comes from there. When she falls asleep, it seeps into people. Now it''s even more ghostly and makes people tremble. "Lying in the trough, Qu Weiwei, this is the first day to come in, so she won''t let everyone calm down, will she?" I was so popular that I picked up the water jar and threw it away "Qu Wei banged on her forehead again. "This accuracy is worthy of practicing shooting..." someone still wanted to tease. However, Qu Weiwei, who was beaten, showed no sign of waking up. It was as if she had been living in a nightmare. While she kept screaming sharply, her body curled together, shivering, and her face was full of shock under resistance. "What about her?" Someone asked with a restless face that didn''t wake up. Wang Xia also got out of bed strangely. She knew that Qu Weiwei had been injected with drugs, but she didn''t know what she had been injected with? At first, she thought it was a kind of poison, but it was not like this. "Sister Xia, doesn''t it look like poison?!" The female prisoner who deliberately bumped into Qu Weiwei before dinner and gave others a chance to inject whispered. "I don''t look like..." Wang Xia said. She has been in prison for too long. She knows some of the "able" people here. The person who injected Qu Weiwei was contacted once when she was outside, and the background was very complex. In fact, if there is no "accidental" death in prison, most people who know so can go out as long as they want to go out But the other party didn''t go out. It must be something that needs to be done in the prison. But Qu Weiwei didn''t annoy that person before. She annoyed me this time "Sister Xia, find a way. It''s really impossible to sleep!" "Yes, I have to go to the factory to make clothes tomorrow. I''m in a bad mood. I don''t want to suffer when the iron irons me." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Everyone complained. Wang Xia twisted her eyebrows, thought about it and said, "Muzi, bring your socks." "Why?" Muzi frowned incomprehensibly. Wang Xia smiled. "You didn''t say you couldn''t sleep. Plug her mouth." As soon as Muzi heard this, he immediately understood that he got out of bed and went to look through the socks that he hadn''t washed in recent days. After wrapping them together, he stuffed them into Qu Weiwei''s mouth. The people were still very sleepy. When they saw it, they laughed one after another. "I don''t know if it''s Muzi''s socks or Qu Weiwei''s dirty mouth. It''s estimated that it can''t sleep all night..." "You''re all right. I''m next to Qu Weiwei. I''m in the most pain." "It''s all right. You can plug your nose!" "Hahaha..." Wang Xia also laughed. Looking at Qu Weiwei, who had become heavy breathing because she could only breathe through her nostrils because she blocked her mouth, she sneered and turned around and went to her own bed. However, when lying down, she subconsciously looked in the direction of Qu Weiwei and wondered, what did the woman inject her? Or... Qu Weiwei is just living in a nightmare now?! The night in Los Angeles is getting heavier and heavier. When everything becomes quiet here, star in Mo palace will also be coaxed to sleep by Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin put star on the small bed, carefully covered the quilt, and then turned out of the room. Xi Cheng waited outside. Seeing Shi Shaoqin coming out, he shook his head solemnly, "Li Yunze''s research can improve silence, but it doesn''t help star." Shi Shaoqin had no hope at all. After listening to it, he didn''t lose much. "At the beginning of silence, I didn''t find that progesterone could decompose, so naturally I didn''t study what might happen in the future..." Xi Cheng sighed. Although he didn''t want to admit it, he had to admit it. "Now, it seems that we can only rely on XK." Xi Cheng noticed Shi Shaoqin''s face as he spoke. After all, star''s "illness" may involve star going to XK Chapter 1630 The new day, with the pace of the new year getting closer and closer, is filled with the joy of laziness everywhere. Jian Mo was having breakfast when he saw that Chu Zixiao came to report on time and praised him. "Beichen is not there?" Chu Zixiao looks around. Jane Mo rolled her eyes, "fake!" "Yes!" J echoed, Tucao said, "obviously want to make complaints about Zhang Nian''s absence!" Jian Jie nodded seriously and agreed, but said kindly, "brother, Zhang Nian took her sister to take a bath in the nursery. She just spit milk." Chu Zixiao felt his nose in embarrassment and went to the nursery with Jian Mo''s encouraging eyes. Jian Jie waited until Chu Zixiao''s figure disappeared, then quietly looked at Jian Mo and said, "Mom, do you think it''s difficult for big brother''s feelings?" "..." Jane Mo twitched at the corners of her mouth. She felt a little strange about Jane''s older child coming to talk to her. Although the high IQ of milk packets is always make complaints about her. "Don''t laugh at people..." J put a piece of bread with jam on Jane Jie''s plate. "Be careful. Those who laugh at people become those who are laughed at." Jian Jie looked at J with a puzzled look on his face. "Why do I think you''ve been a little......" he thought slightly, "a little sour?!" Jane Mo also looked at J, "yes, milk..." she paused, received Jane Jie''s angry eyes and quickly changed her mouth, "Xiao Jie said, I also think you''ve been a little wrong recently." "What can be wrong with me?" Hum, J didn''t look at it. After watching it quietly for a few seconds, Jian Mo took back his sight and didn''t say anything more. He planned to ask again when Jian Jie wasn''t in front of him. J''s age seems to be the age to fall in love "Where''s Gu Beichen? I didn''t see anyone early in the morning?" J asked, changing the subject. Jane turned over her eyes and hum, Tucao, "what a real challenge to make complaints about!" "..." J stared at Jane Jie and didn''t answer. Jane Mo smiled and joked: "it''s estimated to see if Xiao Jing''s year-end bonus can be deducted..." Naturally, President Gu can''t deduct Xiao Jing''s year-end bonus. Although, he often deducts it when he doesn''t agree with his words. However, Xiao Jing is now the vice president of the emperor. He controls the power to empty the company at any time. He promises to do as much work as he takes money... If President Gu deducts again, he will find subsidies from other places. Such angry words gradually spread to the outside. The media caught the wind and made another free advertisement for the emperor years ago. Although, the emperor''s current achievements do not need. "Everyone has worked hard this year," Gu Beichen said faintly after the year-end meeting. "Before tomorrow, the finance department will work out everyone''s year-end bonus, and then start to arrange shifts and take turns." "OK!" The chief financial officer nodded. "In addition," Gu Beichen slowly leaned back on the chair, and the eagle''s eyes calmly crossed Xiao Jing and said to the financial controller, "make up for the year-end bonus deducted by Xiao Jing in recent years." As soon as these words came out, the executives in the conference room held back their smiles one by one, looking like they were about to lose their breath. Xiao Jing now has a petrified face. He stares and forgets the original "crazy bully and drag president" set by himself. He looks confused and forced in capital letters. Gu Beichen glanced at him lightly, put down the word "break up", and took the lead to walk outside the meeting room Xiao Jing hurried up and asked, "Chen Shao... Did you come here this morning after eating Mrs. Shao''s honey? Did you want to make up for my year-end bonus deducted in recent years?!" "Yes." Gu Beichen said solemnly, "Mo''er said this morning that Xiao Jing has been too busy recently. I haven''t seen anyone for many days. Let me reward you for your hard work." "..." Xiao Jing took a breath from the corner of his mouth, and a cold air rushed from the center of his feet and swallowed involuntarily. "Chen Shao, don''t you, just say it. I''ll do what you want me to do... Don''t do this, seeping people!" "That''s what you said!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Xiao Jing felt that he had been routine again. Why doesn''t he learn well? Knowing Chen Shao''s way, every time Chen Shao digs a pit, he jumps in by himself "The emperor and the Dragon empire will have in-depth cooperation. After the new year, you take Zhao Qianyu to T city." Gu Beichen said quietly, "just in time, you can have a rest after work." "I believe you, evil!" Xiao Jing snorted softly and said with disgust in his voice, "well, I can see... Madam Shao is now following you and is getting black." He said, because he was dissatisfied, he said directly, "I don''t want the year-end bonus. I don''t agree." Gu Beichen leaned on his desk with his hands copied his trouser pockets, with a lazy light in his casual posture: "young master?" "..." Xiao Jing suddenly carried it in his heart, looked at Gu Beichen''s deep eyes, and his heart was beating a drum. "Chen Shao, you don''t know. Zhao Qianyu''s daughter and I abandoned the job just after throwing away the resignation letter." "So when Mo''er is in confinement, he has to worry about your affairs and arrange opportunities for you." Gu Beichen was obviously dissatisfied. "I, in line with the principle of listening to my wife''s words, naturally want to arrange it for you." He looked at the next time, got up and said calmly, "it''s a brother. You don''t have to thank me too much... After all, boss long told me about Zhao Qianyu in T city." Then he patted Xiao Jing on the shoulder, ignored his disgusting face and left! "Chen Shao, I''ve had enough of you!" Xiao Jing burst out, "where''s your face?" "At Mo''er!" Gu Beichen kept walking and answered calmly. "..." Xiao Jing''s mouth opened slightly and his face became rigid. He hasn''t seen Chen Shao for a few days, and the human device collapsed again?! Gu Beichen came to the door and suddenly stopped, as if thinking of something. He turned back and said, "well, I can lend you Susan for a few days after the new year." "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing sneered, "don''t tell me that Susan asks for annual leave and goes to the ghost CS competition with Meng Yiyan. Don''t you know?" "Oh, really?" Gu Beichen looked like he really didn''t know, and said sympathetically, "Xiao Jing, look, the people around you are right. Don''t you worry?" Then he shook his head helplessly, turned and left Behind him, came Xiao Jing''s violent voice, "if you say this now, I can pierce my heart!" Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a shallow smile and calmly pressed the down button of the elevator. No wonder Mo''er likes matchmaking. It turns out... It''s still fun. Chapter 1631 After Gu Beichen left the emperor, he drove directly back to Changhuan garden villa. In this villa full of Gu Beichen''s design, at the moment, it is filled with not only the taste of approaching the new year, but also the warmth of adding a little princess to the Gu family. Gu Beichen parked the car in the parking space, glanced at Chu Zixiao''s recent Land Rover, opened the door to get off, and walked to the villa with indifferent and steady steps Before Jane heard the scream, Jane didn''t come. "..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked for his voice. He saw that J pressed Jian Jie directly on the dry lawn with slight green signs. "Force me to do it myself!" J snorted coldly and directly cut Jian Jie''s backhand behind his back. Jian Jie gritted his teeth. "You just bully me... Hum, one day, you won''t be my opponent!" "Then wait until that day!" J said that he had found a book from Jane Jie''s clothes. He looked and saw no sign of opening, so he let Jane Jie go. "What''s the big deal? Don''t look!" Jane can take temporary setbacks and make complaints about the Beichen opera. He left his mouth and Tucao, "Dad, have you not seen my uncle bullying me?" "Gu Beichen said indifferently," Gu Beichen took back his sight and entered the house. Jian Jie sighed, patted the withered grass on his little hand, and said with some sigh: "they seem to have forgotten that I am still a child... Alas, it''s too much! Does it make people have a childhood?" "Jane Mo wants you to have a childhood, but do you need your IQ?" J, Tucao, warned, "don''t make complaints about my secret, otherwise I''ll be black on your computer next time!" Jian Jie snorted, patted the dust on his body, ignored J and walked to the villa. He was not interested in finding out other people''s secrets, but he just found it and teased him when he saw his brother-in-law so nervous. Just Why does my uncle care so much about that book? Jane Jie looked back at J and thought that it would not be a love letter for someone who might become a little aunt?! At the thought that it might be a love letter, Jian Jie''s uncontrollable cold, and his small body trembled. J''s book can''t be anything like love letters. There are all records about Mo palace. J looked at Jian Jie, who just took back his sight, slightly frowned and wondered whether to send this thing back to Mo palace Although Jane Mo seems to have a little princess now, she doesn''t Miss Xiao Yan so much. But what if seeing something related to the Mo palace reminds her of sadness? J took the book and walked to the villa As soon as I entered the room, I saw Gu Beichen talking with Jane Mo in his arms. "I feel it''s hard for Xiaonian to take this step unless..." Jane Mo tried to stop talking. Gu Beichen glanced at her lightly, "no!" "Can''t you get her father out?" Jane Mo doesn''t give up. Gu Beichen sighed, "Mo''er, that''s a prison, not a hotel." He said slightly, "besides, Zhang Zhengtang committed a lot of crimes. At the beginning, Zixiao didn''t show mercy. It was more extensive and troublesome to operate." "I just think about it." Jian Mo sighed and looked in the direction of the nursery. "Zixiao is like this, I''m also very uncomfortable." Gu Beichen also looked at the nursery, but took back his sight at a glance, Indifferently said: "Zixiao has stepped out of this step, and the rest depends on Zhang Nian. After all, it involves a family. After all, her father is in prison, her mother''s body breaks down, and she has changed from worry free to bear all... And the accusations of family people. She has no resentment, and she is already the greatest love for Zixiao." Everyone knows the truth, but the heart longing for happiness and fulfillment always hopes to break through the secular world. Jane Mo sighed again, lying in Gu Beichen''s arms and said with emotion: "it''s really difficult for her..." At first, although she wanted to be with ah Chen, she often thought that Cen Lanxi was the one who killed her father, and her heart was also suffering. Fortunately, everything is just a game set by Gu mohuai. Otherwise, she really doesn''t know what will happen if she presses such guilt every day?! "I don''t know what happened to Yunze and Yining?" Jane Mo seemed to have an endless heart. "The last time I saw Yining was a few months ago. She looked as if she was getting quieter and quieter. She was not like the strong and energetic she I knew who didn''t speak." Gu Beichen didn''t answer, but gently rubbed Jian Mo''s hand with his thick finger belly. "I haven''t seen one by one in three years, but it doesn''t change one by one..." Jian Mo smiled. "The ancient spirit has not changed, but it is more and more aura." She suddenly sighed, "Alas, I don''t know if the milk bag will be with one by one in the future!" Thinking of the scene in the restaurant, Gu Beichen''s eyes were deep and didn''t answer. Yining''s affairs were concealed from Mo''er, and they were also explained in advance. Fortunately, originally, Mo''er and Yining didn''t see much at ordinary times. Just find a reason to prevaricate, and it passed. "By the way, is big brother and warmth coming back?" Jane Mo suddenly remembered something and suddenly sat up. "You really can''t finish your heart," Gu Beichen smiled with some helpless eyes, "come to Los Angeles tomorrow morning." "I don''t know if I can come back this year. You all..." Before Jian Mo finished speaking, Gu Beichen''s mobile phone vibrated. He took it out, looked at the call and said, "the phone to the south." Then he picked it up and put it in his ear. "Third brother, I''m back from vacation." Lin Nan retreated to the south. He was arrogant and domineering. In front of Gu Beichen, he always said like a child, "I wanted to see you, your third sister-in-law and the little princess first. When I got home, I was entangled..." "Then come tomorrow," Gu Beichen said, raising his lips. "Just in time, boss long and warm will arrive tomorrow morning." "What a coincidence!" Lin Nan was surprised. "OK, I''ll go to your side for dinner tomorrow noon." "Yes!" Gu Beichen answered and heard Lin Nannan calling for him. "Third brother, I''ll hang up first. Say something to my third sister-in-law." "Yes!" Gu Beichen hung up the phone after answering the voice, looked at Jian Mo and said, "I''ve been nagged back by you." Jane Mo also smiled, "why do you think this year will suddenly become very beautiful?" She sighed, "now it''s not easy for you four to get together once..." after a pause, she suddenly remembered something and said, "I still remember the first time I saw you four together at the same time." She looked at Gu Beichen. "Ah Chen, do you remember?" Chapter 1632 Gu Beichen looked out of the French window and looked at the soft and warm sunshine in the yard. Gradually, he deepened his sight That time, when Mo''er wanted to compare the design of the imperial club, he met her to draw jewelry design and sell money. He also met her to "seduce" the director of a bureau. In a rage, he left with people and went to heaven night. That night, Xiang Nan asked everyone to drink there. But he took Mo''er with him. After a while, he took him away again Recalling the past, it turns out that his and her memories have always been so profound. "Sorry, I didn''t pay attention to you at that time, so that you left some irreversible regrets in your life." Gu Beichen said softly and looked at Jian mo. Jane Mo smiled, shook her head, leaned against Gu Beichen''s shoulder and slowly opened her mouth: "whose life has no regrets? Sometimes, regrets are a part of life." She smiled at the corners of her mouth and said with a happy and satisfied face: "when I fell in love with you at that time, I always felt that I had given myself the biggest problem in life..." Gu Beichen hugged Jian Mo''s hand and tightened it. "I want to restrain, but I can''t restrain." Jane Mo tilted her head to Gu Beichen''s line of sight, "sometimes love is like this, unaware, but there is no cure." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered softly and agreed with Jian Mo''s words. Because, at the beginning, he was also like this "Call Yunze?" Jian Mo said, "call him and Yining, and come to dinner tomorrow noon..." after a pause, she sighed, "unfortunately, I''m in confinement now, and I can''t barbecue outside, otherwise it''s lively." "There will be opportunities in the future." Gu Beichen said, letting go of Jian Mo, "I''ll go to the study to have a remote meeting and call Yunze by the way." "Well, good." Jane answered. After watching Gu Beichen go upstairs, she got up and wanted to see Chu Zixiao and Zhang Nian at the same time. Before I got to the nursery, I saw Zhang Nian and Chu Zixiao come out "Is Yan Yan asleep?" "Yes." Zhang Nian answered. Jane Mo didn''t go in to see it. Simply in order to give Zhang Nian and Chu Zixiao a chance, she said directly, "I won''t go in to see it after I sleep. I''m a little sleepy, so I go upstairs to sleep." Chu Zixiao and Zhang Nian both know that Jian Mo is to give them two space. The atmosphere was a little embarrassed, and Jane Mo turned and went upstairs. In order to complete a pair of people who love each other but can''t be together, she also works hard. After Zhang Nian waited for Jian Mo to go upstairs, he thought about it and said, "let''s talk outside." Words fall, she has already lifted a step to walk toward the outside Chu Zixiao frowned slightly and followed out. The sunshine near noon, especially warm in the windless weather, brings the pace of spring closer. Zhang Nian hesitated and said, "I tried to put it down. I want to give each other a chance and give myself a chance..." she raised her eyes and looked up at Chu Zixiao, "but I can''t do it." Chu Zixiao frowned. "You and I are always people from two worlds. I bear and bear it. I really can''t make everything indifferent because of love." Zhang Nian said seriously, "not every love has a good ending, isn''t it?" "But we can try our best to turn our love into good!" Chu Zixiao stared at Zhang Nian and said, "if your father''s things make you brood, we can always find a balance, as long as we are willing to face and work hard, don''t we?" "But I don''t want to work hard and face it!" Zhang Nian said, "I''m not Zhang Nian who can pursue what I like recklessly now. I''m carrying the work of Zhang Jia and my mother''s illness... I have no ability and energy. I''m facing the failure after my efforts, do you understand?" Zhang Nian took a deep breath and clenched his hand. "Moreover, I have accepted the pursuit of my senior students..." "Qiao Jinnian?!" Chu Zixiao gritted his teeth. "Why? Why can''t you work hard with me? With someone you don''t love, there is another man in your heart. Can you and Qiao Jinnian really come to the end?" "Then I carry all, can I really go to the end with you?" After Zhang Nian asked, he pulled down the corners of his mouth with self mockery, "I just want a peaceful life, which has never changed..." "Zhang Nian..." "Chu Zixiao, these days, when I know I have to face you every day, I''m under a lot of pressure." Zhang Nian stopped Chu Zixiao and said, "if you really love me, please... Let me go!" Zhang Nian stared deeply at Chu Zixiao, gritted his teeth, took back his sight, turned and entered the villa. It''s not that she''s not brave enough, but that some things have doomed the end from the beginning Zhang Nian took a deep breath, but he couldn''t stop the sour in his nose. Chu Zixiao has been standing there. With a slightly slanted line of sight, he can see a corner of Zhang Nian''s figure from the French window. Do you wait until you hurt yourself every time to know that your way is too sharp? Isn''t it... After every sharp, he doesn''t have a chance to start over? Chu Zixiao made a self mockery at the corner of his mouth and walked to the parking place with some weakness The sound of Land Rover engine was loud and crazy in the streets of Los Angeles. At that moment, Chu Zixiao just wanted to vent. When the sound of "squeaking -" came, Chu Zixiao suddenly braked near Shuya hospital. He looked through the windshield and landed at the gate of Shuya hospital. Holding the hand of the steering wheel, he gradually tightened, started the car again and entered the hospital. "Bang", the sound of slamming the door, filled with anger. Chu Zixiao was about to find Qiao Jinnian when he saw him coming this way from the direction of the outpatient building Qiao Jinnian also saw Chu Zixiao, subconsciously frowned slightly and walked forward. "Come to me?" Qiao Jinnian asked. Zhang Nian is now taking care of Gu Beichen''s children. If Chu Zixiao looks for her, she should go to Gu Beichen''s house. "When did Zhang Nian promise your pursuit?" Chu Zixiao asked directly. Qiao Jinnian was slightly stunned, but it was only for a moment that he recovered his calm and said with a smile: "yesterday!" "Really?" Chu Zixiao hissed coldly. He is a lawyer and a criminal defense lawyer. His greatest ability is to quickly capture the subtle expressions of others. Qiao Jinnian was stunned for a moment. He was obviously surprised by his problem. "In fact, does it matter?" Qiao Jinnian smiled, "anyway, Xiaonian doesn''t want to be with you. What does it matter who he is with?!" In a word, Chu Zixiao suddenly clenched his hand. When Qiao Jinnian began to chase Zhang Nian, he didn''t stop and hit his rival. Naturally, he wouldn''t be soft hearted. "Chu Zixiao, from the moment you sent your uncle to prison and destroyed Zhang Jia, you and Xiaonian are impossible in this life..." Chapter 1633 Chu Zixiao''s eyes were opposite Qiao Jinnian''s, and the instant electric light and flint burned the sunshine near noon, as if he had to hide in the clouds to avoid the blazing under the confrontation between them. "You and Zhang Nian can''t be together, can you really be with her?" Chu Zixiao sneered, "do you really mind if she has me in her heart?" "How long can one live in the heart of another?" Qiao Jinnian smiled, but with a trace of sneer, "I believe that one day, I will slowly erode your position in Xiaonian''s heart, and finally completely replace you." "Well, let''s wait and see..." Chu Zixiao''s eyes narrowed slightly, showing the lingran momentum belonging to his lawyer attribute. "I won''t let Zhang Nian drive me away from my heart, and I won''t shrink back because of a little setback." Qiao Jinnian smiled and slowly opened his mouth with a trace of sneer: "so, ignore her pressure and her emotions, just for what you want?" In the light Yi''s voice, there is a sharp point to the point, "Chu Zixiao, from the means of Zhang Jia to your mind of getting close to Xiaonian, you are showing your selfishness from beginning to end." "Don''t you show selfishness by ignoring what Zhang Nian really wants?" Chu Zixiao sneered, "Dr. Qiao, are you sure you can give her the life she wants without hurting her and love her forever?" "Indeed, I don''t have the ability of lawyer Chu." Qiao Jinnian said with a smile, "after all, I am no longer happy, and I have no ability to bring down Zhang Jia and send Xiaonian''s father to prison..." Even if Chu Zixiao is a lawyer, he is speechless and unable to refute. Because these are the biggest obstacles between him and Zhang Nian. "Dr. Joe..." When the air around the two men confronted each other again condensed, the voice of a nurse came from behind. Qiao Jinnian looked back and saw that it was from the clinic. "Dr. Qiao, you forgot to take your mobile phone out of the clinic," the nurse ran over. "Director Wang of the emergency department called and asked you to go to the emergency department. It seems that a patient is not in good condition." "Good!" Qiao Jinnian took over the mobile phone and looked at Chu Zixiao. Without saying anything, he turned and hurried to the emergency clinic. Chu Zixiao looked at Qiao Jinnian''s back, and his sight gradually deepened Zhang Nian and Qiao Jinnian''s words seemed to cut his heart and sprinkle a few handfuls of salt on the crossing... The pain made him unable to breathe, but he could only bear it by himself. Sitting on the bus, Chu Zixiao''s vision fell in front and gradually lost focus. Does he want to be with Zhang Nian, regardless of her pressure and selfish behavior? However, if he chooses to give up... There is really no future. Chu Zixiao closed her eyes and tightened her eyebrows into a word "Chuan". How does he choose a love problem?! No one can answer the question of love for the party. How to solve this problem has never been a problem that only you can choose A good ending, or a bad one... Only you can taste and bear it. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze watched everyone transfer he Yining to the VIP ward and tested her again. Everything was normal, so he was a little relieved. "Mom, we have a new environment..." insert a handful of stars into the vase one by one. "It''s sunny today. At this time, the sun has the smell of spring!" Then he leaned down by the window and sniffed one by one. Li Yunze took a look, crossed the corners of his mouth and smiled and cleaned up the measuring instrument just now. He Yining now doesn''t need the maintenance of those instruments in ICU. Her physical function is slowly recovering. Just wait for her to wake up "Dad, let''s buy some small lanterns back?" One by one, I looked back at Li Yunze. "When I was in the East China Sea, my mother said that there was an atmosphere for the new year." "OK." Li Yunze replied, "after lunch later, let''s go to the market to buy." "Eh, my father also knows that my mother likes to buy in places like the market?" One by one, she opened her eyes in surprise. "Mom said that the supermarket has no good atmosphere as the market. She likes to go to the market to pick things for the new year. It''s crowded, and then bargain. It''s very exciting." Li Yunze looked at his daughter and said excitedly, and his eyes gradually deepened. Yes, he knows He used to think that he would never pay attention to Yining. However, Yining knows all his preferences! The frequency of the vibration of the mobile phone interrupted Li Yunze''s thoughts. He restrained his distracted eyes and took out his mobile phone. Seeing that it was Beichen, he picked it up, "Beichen?" "Boss long and warm will arrive tomorrow morning, and they will come back to the south today..." Gu Beichen rubbed his slightly swollen eyebrows just after the video conference. "Come to me tomorrow and bring them one by one." "OK." Li Yunze answered and looked away at his sleeping face, feeling lost. If Yining is awake, they will be a family tomorrow Yining likes Jian Mo very much. She always mentions her strong and desperate love, which makes her envy. However, why isn''t Yining a strong and persistent person?! Gu Beichen felt the loss in Li Yunze''s heart. He sighed quietly and hung up without saying anything more. He stood in front of the study window, watching the sparrows playing outside in pairs, thinking that they had experienced so much one by one to get a lifelong partner. He sighed but felt grateful. Anyway, a good result is always worth it. Now the four brothers, one of whom is still alone in the south, can only hope that his emotional path can be smoother Thinking, the mobile phone vibrated. Gu Beichen took back his thoughts indifferently, looked down at the call, saw that it was Xiao Jing''s, picked it up and put it in his ear, "huh?" "The news from the prison," Xiao Jing pressed the down button of the elevator and planned to go to the canteen to solve the lunch. "Meng Yi should have been injected with ''happy water'', the dose is not large, but it''s enough for him..." he paused, "it''s Qu Weiwei''s situation. It seems that she can''t understand it." "Huh?" Gu Beichen slightly deepened his eyes. "It''s not like being injected with ''happy water'', nor does it seem to be a kind of poison..." Xiao Jing entered the elevator and pressed the floor at the same time. "I heard that sleeping will have nightmares. Now I dare not sleep. I''m depressed and can''t bear the fatigue of my body, which has become a vicious cycle." Gu Beichen looked at the outside, and his sight became deeper and deeper. "I guess it was injected with something to control the nerves." Xiao Jing went out when the elevator arrived, and said in a bad voice, "however, you can ask your good friend for details..." Chapter 1634 Xiao Jing knows Gu Beichen best. Naturally, Gu Beichen and Shi Shaoqin are in love and kill each other. His words made it clear that he was disgusting Gu Beichen and avenged Gu Beichen''s stabbing him in the morning. Unfortunately, who is Gu Beichen? Now, because of Jianmo, it seems to be a lot more docile... But that''s just for Jianmo. "Oh? Then I can only ask you." Gu Beichen said indifferently, "Mo''er said, you are my official CP, well, you should be the good friend you said..." "..." before Xiao Jing stepped into the canteen, he suddenly stopped, and the corners of his mouth twitched because of Gu Beichen''s very serious words. He was going to be disgusted by Chen Shao, but in the end... He was disgusted by Chen Shao. For a while, the cold came. Xiao Jing''s uncontrollable body shook and secretly feigned Gu Beichen several times. He felt that he couldn''t turn over the serf and sing in his life "Come to Changhuan garden for dinner tomorrow." Gu Beichen changed the subject. Xiao Jing knew that the Dragon owl would come back tomorrow. He was not surprised and went into the canteen. Executives saw him come in and wanted to say hello. It can be seen that he was on the phone, so they nodded one after another. Xiao Jing motioned to everyone slightly and went to the vegetable area without stopping. Well, the one on the shelf... Very nice! Gu Beichen hung up the phone and wondered what medicine Shi Shaoqin had injected Qu Weiwei. At the beginning, Mo palace could have silence that made Mo''er "lose memory". I want Qu Weiwei to be injected. It should also be a drug that can control nerves?! Thinking, Gu Beichen lowered his eyes and sent a text message to Shi Shaoqin: what did you inject into Qu Weiwei? Shi Shaoqin is fishing shrimp with star. Today, the little guy has a bulging face and looks very angry because he can''t catch it. Well, I''m mainly angry that he can catch it and he can''t catch it However, Shi Shaoqin didn''t let the little guy get angry because he couldn''t catch it on purpose. Even though star''s memory is being refreshed every day, he must let him subconsciously know that everyone''s achievement depends on himself, not on the concession of others, to highlight his success. After reading Gu Beichen''s text message, Shi Shaoqin replied indifferently: if you like to live in the castle built by yourself, let her live in the castle all the time. Gu Beichen frowned slightly: you are becoming more and more abnormal. Shi Shaoqin''s deep eyes: there are more abnormal ones. Would you like to try them? Gu Beichen didn''t reply. He didn''t have much ideas about Shi Shaoqin''s abnormal means. A person who likes to hit that person with other people''s beliefs and expectations, Qu Weiwei is in his hands, and what she tries is more than a nightmare?! "I caught..." star suddenly stood up on the small stool and raised the shrimp fishing rod in front of Shi Shaoqin. "Look at the stone, star has caught it." "So, star is OK!" Shi Shaoqin smiled and encouraged. Star "um" made a sound, nodded heavily, swept away his anger, took down the shrimp and went fishing again Shi Shaoqin looked at Star happily, and his sight gradually deepened Will his early education of star independence make him lose his childhood? However, if star is likely to go to XK in the end... Will he be unable to face the cruel training in XK without letting him subconsciously know his independence?! the second day. The morning light broke through the clouds early in the morning and reflected on the tall buildings in Los Angeles "Flight z5128 from London has arrived at Los Angeles International Airport..." a sweet broadcast came from the airport. The Dragon owl took his warm hand out of the airport, and the three got on the car that Xiao Heng came to pick up. "Brother Xiao, sister-in-law......" Xiao Heng looked back at the two men. "Should I go back to devil kiss first, or go directly to chenshao?" "Go back to devil s kiss first?" The Dragon owl looked sideways at the warmth. Nodded warmly, "I''m unkempt at the moment. Although they don''t mind, it''s a little bad." "Yes." The Dragon owl answered. Xiao Heng has started the car and headed for devil "s kiss Over the past year, there have been few opportunities for Dragon owl and warm to return to Los Angeles. From the departure of long Qingjian, the father of Long Xiao, to his decision not to return to the dragon''s house and only to be the person behind long Jingyao, the son of his uncle long Ziyi... In more than a year, he finally completed the capital integration of Fei night casino, EMP stock exchange and Yadong bank. The capital integration of these three places can be said to push the regime of the Dragon Empire group and the dragon family on Longdao to a higher peak So far, no one in Longdao can shake the status of the dragon family in Longdao. Even if the four families of Longdao want to fight together one day, it is useless. After warm and dragon owl wash and change clothes, let Xiao Qiang carry the gifts they are going to give you to the car. After that, long owl drove himself to Changhuan garden with warm. Qi Feng didn''t come to Los Angeles. Fei night casino still has some tails to sweep. He was left in city A. When the Dragon owl and the warm arrived, Li Yunze arrived with one by one. Warm look at everyone have children, said that the heart is a little lost, it is a lie However, now the problem lies with the Dragon owl. Naturally, she will not show loss, which will blow the self-esteem of the Dragon owl man. "Are you back to the south?" The Dragon owl spoke faintly, which was different from Gu Beichen''s indifference under his arrogance. He was full of the domineering king in the bones of the dragon family. "Almost should..." before Gu Beichen finished his words, his sight fell on a car driving into the yard, "the man is here." Jian Mo went to the French window and watched Lin Nan get out of the car with an inch of head shaved. The corners of his mouth smiled and said, "it''s not easy for the four young people to get together... It''s a busy year." Then she looked at Li Yunze with some dissatisfaction, "it''s the Chinese New Year. Why is Yining hospital still expatriate?" Li Yunze said with a smile: "Amy has a rare opportunity to exchange academic knowledge in China. I don''t have much research on gynecology. Yining is over..." Jane Mo looked at one by one, endured, didn''t say anything?! Gu Beichen naturally knows what Jane Mo is thinking at the moment... It''s not easy to come back from abroad, and Yining goes to exchange and study again. "Aunt Mo, my father and I are very supportive!" One by one, she seemed to see Jane Mo''s mind. The little girl said smartly, "my mother didn''t want to go, but I don''t want my mother to lose this opportunity because of me. After all, my mother can help more mothers and babies in the future." She smiled and looked at Li Yunze, "anyway, my father and I are going to fly over to accompany my mother for the new year. It''s not bad." Gu Beichen looked at one by one and felt a little distressed for her. At this moment, her words not only dispel Mo''er''s doubts, but also... There is a reason why we can''t get together during the New Year! Just when everyone''s mind was a little fretting, Lin pushed the door to the south, and his voice followed, "Emma, you all have wives and children. I, a single dog, feel like I''m looking for abuse today..." Chapter 1635 The crowd looked at the place where the voice came from, and they saw that Lin came in with a tall and straight step that belonged to the soldier alone, looking handsome with a wild male breath "Big brother, big sister-in-law, second brother, third brother, third sister-in-law..." Lin said hello to everyone, then looked at Jian Jie and one by one, shook his head and sighed, "Xiao Jie''s handsome is about to compare with the third brother... But second brother, your daughter is a real sign. I''ll book it first and be my daughter-in-law later!" As soon as Lin Nan''s words fell to the south, he saw that Jian Jie''s small face sank slightly and looked at his eyes with unfriendliness. "If you want to be a daughter-in-law one by one without a daughter-in-law, are you ashamed?" Jane Mo spoke immediately. Are you kidding? One by one, but her milk bag was favored by her first. She has been spoiled since childhood. How can her daughter-in-law be robbed by her unknown son? It''s not just a slap on the face of the milk bag, it''s also a slap on her face! "Hey, third sister-in-law, I don''t like what you said..." Lin Nan was full of the breath of military ruffians. "If I really want this daughter-in-law, I can''t line up and circle Changhuan garden?" "Uncle, do you think it''s milk tea? How many times around the earth?" Jane Jay immediately make complaints about it. "..." Lin looked south at Jane Jie, who looked innocent. He didn''t react for a moment. He stiffened and then raised his eyebrows, "Oh, how can I forget that there is a little Jie in front of my son Jane Jiejun''s handsome little face was a little red, but since the little adult was used to it, he just turned red, pretended to be cold and arrogant and hummed, "it''s like Uncle, you will have a son?" After a pause, he glanced thoughtfully, "I don''t know if my uncle has a daughter and has to wait in line for me to choose!" Jane Mo immediately supported her son''s hands! Lin Nannan was slightly choked by Jian Jie and wanted to refute. Finally, he felt that he was a man in charge of so many soldiers and had a little lost share in a competition with a child under the age of eight, so he simply gave up. With Lin Nanfang, the four little parties are generally more than just drinking. Moreover, after many years in the army, he gave full play to the breath of the army ruffian. The whole atmosphere was so warm that Jian Mo, who was in confinement, felt that he had not been so happy for a century. No way. Although she is not a noisy person, she can only walk around the house all day. She has nothing to do except worrying about everyone''s life-long affairs. She is naturally very happy to be so lively once in a while. "Of course I remember seeing my third sister-in-law for the first time. I called my third sister-in-law directly, right, third sister-in-law?" Lin Nan threw a bean into his mouth and looked at Jian Mo with his eyebrows. Jane Mo smiled, "yes, at that time, we admitted me to the south!" She said, glancing at Beichen. Gu Beichen had a headache. As he didn''t hear his wife''s subtext, he threw out a little shunzi and looked at Lin Nannan, "report double!" "Shit!" Lin Nannan looked at the cards in his hand. There was no shunzi, and hurriedly looked at the Dragon owl. "Boss long, take it... We can''t come to the third brother''s house for a meal. Are we paying for the meal?" "I can''t catch it!" The Dragon owl''s voice was calm. Lin Nan bared his teeth and looked at Gu Beichen. He just received his warning eyes. He couldn''t help muttering, "what he''s done doesn''t let people say... If the third brother was my soldier, I must practice. You don''t dare to warn me with your eyes." His voice was very small, but even if the Dragon owl and Gu Beichen didn''t hear it, with Lin Nanan''s temperament and his thoughts at the moment, they could guess eight or nine times. "In that case, practice well." The Dragon owl said and threw the card on the table. Lin Nanyi also directly mixed the cards, "OK, OK, just practice..." Jane Mo looked at the pair of double king fried in the hands of her family manager, and laughed with a flutter. "Big brother," she said when she looked at the Dragon owl, "there''s warmth, you''re bad!" "His cheating has nothing to do with me!" He smiled and said, "but take out the money, ah Xiao and South... They''ll practice later and we''ll have afternoon tea." None of the people here is poor in money. Just because you don''t need money doesn''t mean you won''t have fun with money. For example, dragon owl and Lin Nannan are playing tricks at the moment! After lunch at President Gu''s house, they decided to find an indoor drill ground to compete. Fortunately, the sun is very good. Jian Mo gets on the bus when she goes out... When she gets to the place, the car stops at the door and directly enters the indoor drill ground. She is not afraid of the cold wind. "Than what?" The Dragon owl spoke indifferently. "Shoot well, you''re good at it in the South..." Gu Beichen received it casually. Lin Nan picked his eyebrow. "This is the third brother''s choice. Don''t cheat if you lose back!" Gu Beichen and the Dragon owl looked at each other and knew that Lin Nannan had a purpose from playing cards today. After a look in their eyes, they listened to Lin look south to Li Yunze and asked, "second brother, come together!" "Shooting?" Li Yunze sneered, "is it better than throwing a scalpel?" "..." Lin Lin Nan, grinning, "the ability of brother Tucao make complaints about it." Xiao Jinggang just parked his car and came in. Lin Nan asked, "Xiao Jing, why don''t you replace your second brother?" "Don''t," Xiao Jing is also a sensible person, "I really can''t replace some things. Nan Shao, don''t beat me with your mind..." "Shit, am I that obvious?" Lin Nannan is dissatisfied. Everyone laughed and listened to J Tucao, "make complaints about the face." Lin Nan raised his eyebrows. "Indeed, I came back from this vacation with a task..." he looked as if you could see that I didn''t pretend to be casual, "anyway, wait until I win, you have to deal with it." "So how did you lose?" The Dragon owl spoke indifferently. "I''m kidding..." Lin Nan immediately raised his eyebrows. "How can I lose?" If he loses, how can he deserve the title of ''North Silver Fox''? As soon as the battlefield said, Jane Mo and warm them. They took the children to have afternoon tea, and several men went to the shooting room. "Do you think South will win?" Warm and curious. She knows the identity of the Dragon owl. A man who grew up in the night gate should be very sneaky when playing with guns. But south is an officer of the special forces. He has participated in acting and actual combat. His strength should also be awesome As for Gu Beichen, warm doesn''t know his past in Mo palace. He just feels that he will play some such projects at ordinary times. However, looking at everyone just now, it seems that except Li Yunze, the remaining three are very powerful in this aspect? Jane Mo shook her head, thought about it and said, "it''s estimated that it depends on what she wants this time to know whether she will win?" Chapter 1636 Everyone didn''t know what Lin Nan wanted this time, but guessed that his purpose was "not simple". In the shooting range, Xiao Jing leaned on a table with his hands holding his trouser pockets, his legs slightly crossed, and he looked casual with a touch of evil charm. Li Yunze turned over with a bullet in his hand. "I don''t participate in this competition. How do you think I will ask me to promise to help him?" "I don''t understand," Xiao Jing frowned. "If it''s a task, you can notify it from above. Except brother Xiao, you and Chen Shao should have no reason to refuse... Why should Nan Shao start privately?" Li Yunze doesn''t understand. The financial resources of Beichen and boss long can''t be used to the South... After all, there are many people in the Lin family going to the sea. Moreover, if the task is related, the state finance will allocate funds. Unless, this mission is secret! When the secret comes, you can''t start from the open When the sound of loading came, Li Yunze and Xiao Jing first looked at the three people, and then turned their heads to the display screen on one side. Whether it''s Long Xiao or Gu Beichen, they both know their shooting skills and are very accurate! However, he can rely on himself step by step in the special forces, not at home... Under the age of 29, Lin Nanan has climbed from 12 cents to 24 cents, which depends on his combat achievements and ability. Long Xiao and Gu Beichen looked at each other and looked south to Lin. Lin Nan flashed a proud smile at the corner of his mouth, and the two of them looked at each other and took back their sight. The bottom of their eyes was as sharp and cunning as a fox. The sound of "bang bang" can be heard all the time. Looking at the dynamics of the target on the display screen, Li Yunze stared in an instant, and Xiao Jing suddenly stood up straight, with an unbelievable face! "How......" after spitting out two words in surprise, Xiao Jing looked at the three people who had finished shooting. Long Xiao and Gu Beichen looked at each other again. After a touch of surprise, they recovered their indifference. Lin Nan expertly withdrew the gun, took off the earmuff, and smiled proudly at the corners of his mouth, "the Dragon boss and the third brother have lost!" "Shuangfei?" Gu Beichen couldn''t hear his emotion in his voice. "Hum!" Lin nodded to the south. The Dragon owl didn''t speak, but his eyes kept watching Lin Nan. Deep in his eyes, there was an incomprehensible vortex. XK someone once studied the launch of Shuangfei. At the beginning, only long Xiaoche and gale could do it. Because that was the result of their mutual "torture". Later, long Xiaoche''s son, long Yaochen... That is, the behind the scenes founder of Fei night casino and EMP, long Ziyi''s father and long Xiao''s grandfather also inherited this shooting method. But since then, no one has been proficient in Shuangfei. Long Xialuo, who grew up in XK, is not there. Although Xiao Mu is very powerful, Shuangfei is not as good as long Xiaoche. After all, it''s not just a skill, but also to quickly calculate the wind speed, the type of bullet fired from the other party''s gun chamber and so on. "When the three of us shot almost at the same time, you hit Beichen''s bullet on the bullet I shot with the collision principle, and then turn around at the same time, hit your bullet on the target..." the Dragon owl spoke slowly, and his voice was still indifferent to his emotion. "It seems that you have worked hard in it in recent years." Lin Nan smiled. "It''s a coincidence that I have a bit of fate with Uncle Charlotte, and then I have to meet grandpa long..." he shrugged. "Otherwise, I''m so thin. It''s nothing to say about normal. Such skills can''t be mastered so quickly without guidance." Gu Beichen and the Dragon owl looked at each other, as if they were helpless and asked, "say it, your purpose!" "I owe you," Lin Nanan laughed like a child who stole candy. "In a few days, I''ll beg with boss long and third brother!" Said, he looked at Li Yunze, "second brother, look back on your share, let''s talk alone!" Because they had guessed that Lin Nan had a purpose, he said he would discuss it later, so they didn''t ask much. No one is inquisitive, and they all know that some things... Only happen at a specific time. Why bother your thoughts in advance? "Let''s go and have afternoon tea..." Lin Nan raised his eyebrows and said nothing about his happiness. Gu Beichen glanced at him indifferently, "if you win me and boss long, you won''t be able to find north?" "I''m going south. I can''t find the North normal!" Lin Nan said with a smile, completely without the arrogance of the fierce when he just shot. In front of Gu Beichen, he has always been the one who "three brothers are long and three brothers are short". A wanton teenager who likes Su Xiaoxiao and will go after her recklessly and rebel with her family, but finally returns to the army because of her "Look at the south, you''ve got a big grin. It looks like you''ve won." Jane Mo looked at several people who came and said. The warm mouth smiled, "do you think it''s for me, or is it true?" "I know the general manager of our family," Jane Mo frowned and pondered slightly. "This look of dislike to the South should not be allowed." Warmth doesn''t matter to the result. Anyway, in her heart, ah Xiao is the most powerful Well, it''s great to lose! My man is the most powerful existence in my heart. Lin Nan hasn''t come to Jian Mo''s side yet. Suddenly, his eyes brightened and he walked to the other side, playing computer J. He stood behind J and watched J control the speed of the game. The light in his eyes became brighter and brighter Turning around, he found the treasure, "third sister-in-law, Jian Yao is your brother, isn''t he?" Jane nodded. "What''s the matter?" "What''s his major?" "Computer..." "Isn''t it the kind of special cow?" Lin Nan has rubbed to Jian Mo''s side. The greedy look on his face makes everyone unbearable. Jane Mo smiled. "I didn''t lose you anything, and Jian Yao has his own life, I can''t decide." She said and raised her eyebrows. "Of course, if you can handle Jian Yao, I won''t object to him becoming your man." "Would you like to say something for me?" Lin Nannan completely ignored Gu Beichen and flattered him with a face, "third sister-in-law, you see, I admit that you are my third sister-in-law when I first met you, so you can help me talk about it?" As soon as these words fell, Jane Mo smiled happily, but Gu Beichen''s face... Turned black again! "Come to me and dig the foot of the wall?" Gu Beichen hissed coldly, "to the south, I think you have been in the army for several years. You really don''t know the north and south!" "Isn''t this for my country? This is great love!" Lin whispered to the south. Gu Beichen snorted coldly, with an expression of ''you poked my heart, don''t even want to dig people from me''. Lin Nanan just wanted to say something again, when he saw that Li Yunze''s face became tense when he answered the phone. Even, he didn''t have time to say hello to everyone. After saying "I''ll be right back" to the person on the phone, the person had turned and left in a hurry Chapter 1637 The crowd looked at Li Yunze''s leaving figure and looked at each other. After looking at each other, they were at a loss. Only those who know why to calm the situation are wondering whether it is a good thing or a bad thing The only one who can make Li Yunze forget everything and leave in a hurry, and even have no time to say hello one by one, why can he do it! Xiao Jing and Gu Beichen looked at each other, but only one eye. They already understood each other''s meaning. "I''ll send Li Shao over..." Xiao Jing said. The man had turned around and chased out with big steps. If it''s really what he Yining is doing, whether it''s good or bad, Li Yunze must be anxious at the moment, and driving is always a little unsafe. "Li Shao..." When Xiao Jing chased him, Li Yunze just opened the door. Li Yunze looked at Xiao Jing. Others had run over, "Chen Shao, let me send you there." Li Yunze frowned slightly, but then he understood Gu Beichen''s mind, thought about it, didn''t refuse, nodded and went to the co pilot. Xiao Jing got on the bus and drove very fast, but steadily to Huakang Hospital In the end, it is the people who have developed smoothly in all aspects of the five Xiao Li, and their driving skills are naturally nothing to say. As soon as we left here, one by one and Xiao Jie came back from an expansion training area outside. "Hey, where''s dad?" Look around one by one, "it seems that uncle Jing is not here..." "They have something temporary. They''ll come later." Gu Beichen said, looking across Jian Jie. One by one, the small eyebrows frowned and looked at Gu Beichen''s line of sight with doubts. Dad has something temporary. It''s reasonable to say... Will you tell her? "Aren''t you looking for tools to climb?" Jian Jie has a clear mind and has a high tacit understanding with Gu Beichen''s father and son. "It''s estimated that uncle Ze will come back after we finish playing." One by one shrugged his small shoulders and didn''t ask any more. He went to find tools with Jane Jie and was ready to go rock climbing She likes to expand projects abroad. She feels very exciting and can also exercise people''s perseverance and endurance. "It feels... A little strange!" Jian Mo takes a look at Jian Jie who leaves, and then looks at Gu Beichen. "Well, I think so." Gu Beichen spoke indifferently. "..." said Jian Mo discontentedly, "Mr. Gu, your words are inappropriate." "Oh?" Gu Beichen looks at Jian mo. Jane Mo turned her eyes, smiled at the warm mouth on one side, looked at each other with the Dragon owl, and felt very interesting about Gu Beichen who clearly knew what his wife wanted to ask and didn''t understand. Lin Nanfu took an apple, bumped it in his hand and bit it. "Third brother is really good at playing now..." he sat directly on the armrest of the sofa and looked at Jian Mo with a smile. "Third sister-in-law, please help me and let Jian Yao come to me. I''ll train third brother for you." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she picked her eyebrows and smiled, "otherwise, you train first. I have to see if you can train..." "Good!" Lin Nan stood up, bit the apple again and put it down. "Third brother, don''t just lose to me and be unconvinced. Why don''t we fight again?" "Well, I''m in charge!" The Dragon owl spoke faintly. "I''ll buy Mr. Gu!" Jian Mo immediately said, "five apples..." after she finished pressing, she looked at Gu Beichen, "Mr. Gu, if you lose, you can eat all the apples!" "Yes." Gu Beichen answered, got up and began to take off his suit. Warm look at the Dragon owl, "I also buy Beichen win, well, five oranges." "Hey, hey, two sisters in law despise me too much?" Lin Nan slightly retracted his hem and opened his posture, with some dissatisfaction. "Nothing, I''ll buy you to win..." J''s voice came slowly. "If you win Gu Beichen, I''ll consider going to your side!" "Shit, it''s reliable!" As soon as Lin Nan heard this, he suddenly felt refreshed. Originally, he was trying to distract his third sister-in-law. Unexpectedly, J threw him a pie. He had to chew it! Gu Beichen and Lin Nannan said to fight "Who do you think will win this time?" Warm asked Jane mo. "Gu Zong." Jian Mo said definitely, "first of all, he doesn''t want J to go to the army... In addition, Gu is not interested in eating five apples and five oranges." The Dragon owl glanced across the corner of his mouth with a smile like nothing, and then turned his head and looked at the two people who were playing hard In the end, as Jane expected, Lin lost to the south. Gu Beichen certainly won''t want to eat those fruits, and he really doesn''t want J to go to the army. The Dragon owl was not surprised by Gu Beichen''s skill. A man who can fight as well as Shi Shaoqin wants to win in the South... It''s not easy. The most important thing is that facing Beichen to the south, under the subconscious awe, you will lose a layer psychologically. ¡­¡­ "Squeak -" The harsh brake sound stopped in front of the floor of the VIP inpatient department of Huakang hospital. Almost at the same time, Li Yunze had opened the door and got off. After Xiao Jing waited for him to get off, he parked the car in the parking lot first. Li Yunze hurried to the elevator and hurriedly pressed the elevator with an obvious unstable breath. In that way, he was worried under tension. As if, cramped! It''s like... I''m at a loss under expectation. With a Ding, the elevator arrived. At the moment when the door opened, Li Yunze turned sideways and hurriedly pressed the floor where he Yining was located. When a nurse saw Li Yunze coming out of the elevator, she hurried forward and walked to he Yining''s ward with his footsteps. At the same time, she said, "just after Wanxi''s examination, I saw that Dr. he had a physical reaction... I thought I was wrong and observed it specially, so I called Li Shao." "How about the data?" Li Yunze''s voice was tense. When his words fell, he had entered the ward. "Everything is very good." The answer was Wanxi, who had been observing continuously in the ward. Li Yunze explored his hand and the doctor who came to examine he Yining hurriedly handed him the stethoscope. He held his breath and began to examine he Yining. Everything looked really good. "Yining?" Li Yunze gently opened his mouth and called. He put his hands on the edge of the hospital bed and looked at he Yining without blinking. He didn''t want to miss any subtle fluctuations of her. They also observed he Yining''s hand, which is the place where they will respond at the first time Li Yunze was too nervous. After shouting and breathing for several times, he called again, "Yining..." he paused slightly, "Yining, if you can hear me, can you give me some reaction?" He Yining is still quiet. The people began to get nervous, for fear that what Wanxi saw at that time was an illusion. "Li Shao," the doctor on one side thought about whether to persuade Li Yunze. Don''t be eager first. Maybe he Yining''s perception is not so sensitive at the moment, "do you want to..." "Dr. he''s manual!" The nurse who accompanied Li Yunze in suddenly screamed before the doctor finished speaking. Chapter 1638 All the faces have different expressions and look at he Yining''s hand. Xu is why she feels better. When Li Yunze looks at it, her fingers curl up again Everyone saw it really this time. On each face and in each eye, the excited smile exploded. "Dr. he really has sensory reactions..." the doctor said with a smile and sigh, "Dr. he has really strong vitality." Under that kind of operation, it''s a miracle to be able to get down from the operating table, not to mention waking up so quickly... It''s a miracle among miracles. "It is mainly the expectation of Li Shaohe one by one." Wan Xi smiled and said, "when doctor he is not willing to celebrate the new year, father and daughter are too lonely." "Yes, yes, yes!" The doctor nodded with a smile and looked at Li Yunze. "Li Shao, I''ll arrange a comprehensive examination." "Yes." Li Yunze''s voice was excited. Even if it was just a word, he deserved to be a little dumb. The overall inspection was arranged quickly. Li Yunze personally inspected he Yining. After waiting for all the inspections, it has been two hours "Li Shao, how''s the situation?" Xiao Jing hurried forward and asked when he saw someone coming out. Li Yunze''s face was excited by uncontrollable excitement. He nodded with a smile, "Yining''s physical function recovered very well. Without accident, he should be able to wake up in these two days..." "That''s great." Xiao Jing also smiled with relief. "I''ll call Chen Shao back." "Yes." Li Yunze nodded in response, thought about it, and said, "the evening is the key observation period. I''m afraid I''ll be disappointed for a while. Tell Beichen to let him live there one by one tonight." "Good!" Xiao nodded and looked at Li Yunze returning to the ward before calling Gu Beichen. He still remembered that Li Shao was covered with blood when he came to see Mrs. Shao and Yan Yan that morning. He has never seen Li Shao collapse so much... Especially in the operating room! When Gu Beichen received Xiao Jing''s call, he was talking to the Dragon owl about the dragon family. "Huh?" Gu Beichen opened his mouth indifferently and looked across the other side. He just said something warm and happy Jian Mo glanced, "what''s the situation?" "He Yining has signs of waking up. Li Shao just gave her a physical examination and said there was no accident. She will wake up in these two days." Gu Beichen''s Mo Tong said, "Oh?" "Yes!" Xiao Jing answered with certainty. Gu beichenjun''s face gradually softened, "that''s really lucky." "Li Shao said that we should observe tonight and let you take them back one by one for one night." "Yes." After Gu Beichen answered, he hung up the phone and said to the Dragon owl, "Yining estimates that he will wake up in these two days." He scratched a shallow smile on his thin lips, "it seems that you can realize that you want to go after Yunze and Yining''s wedding." The corner of the Dragon owl''s mouth also smiled involuntarily. He looked at Lin Nannan, who was lobbying J to join his elite team, "the four of us are almost South now." "Listen to Mr. Lin, his life-long event has been listed as the task index for next year." Gu Beichen chuckled, "old Lin liked to go south when he was young. Now he hasn''t married alone, and old Lin''s heart can''t fall." The Dragon owl chuckled and his sight became deep. "By the way, when are you going to have your warm wedding?" Gu Beichen takes back his sight on Lin Nanan and asks the Dragon owl. "The uncle said that although he didn''t go back to the dragon''s house in the open, the wedding should be held in the Dragon Island mansion..." the Dragon owl looked sideways, looked at the warmth and chatted with Jane Mo, and said with a smile on his face and satisfaction in the depths of his sight, "I''ll think about when to do it." "Haven''t you thought about how to solve the child''s problem?" Gu Beichen paused and said, "I heard from Mu Chen that you left semen for freezing before you tied the knot?" "Yes." The Dragon owl answered, took back his sight, and didn''t hide Gu Beichen''s words. "Warm body is not suitable for pregnancy, but she wants children, even one... Now because of me, although she doesn''t mention it, she can''t help but envy when she sees other people''s children." Although Gu Beichen guessed, he still asked, "so?" "When appropriate, you can try it!" The Dragon owl''s voice is always indifferent, and there is not much emotion to vent. ¡­¡­ When Li Jiyuan came to the hospital, he heard that he Yining had signs of waking up. He could hardly wait for him to wake up. Of course, he just thought. After all, at a critical juncture, Li Yunze is the one to rely on Night comes quietly. Occasionally, the faint sound of gunfire came, and some children had entered the atmosphere of the new year ahead of time. In the colorful gambling city of Los Angeles, the colorful neon always decorates the city in a greedy night But all this excitement seems to have nothing to do with the hospital at night. Li Yunze went to wet the towel and wiped it for he Yining. He said with a smile in his mouth: "Yining, I''m really happy that you can work so hard..." He said, his actions stopped slightly, looked at he Yining''s eyes, and became gentle like the bright moon hanging on the ink sky. Slowly attached to his body, Li Yunze kissed him at the corner of his mouth and gently opened his mouth: "one night... Will you wake up?" His eyes became deep. "At night, it''s time to sleep. When the sun rises, will you wake up as usual?" No one answered him, but he was not lost at all. After wiping he Yining, Li Yunze pulled a chair and sat by the hospital bed, talking with him and waiting for her to wake up. Although she was sad, she was also happy. Night, deeper and deeper. After midnight, the hospital is quieter Quiet, not even footsteps. Li Yunze held he Yining''s hand and gently put it on his face, as if she were touching him "Yining, I''ll say good night to you today," Li Yunze said in a deep voice in the dark night. "Will you wake up tomorrow morning and say good morning to me?" He smiled in his mouth and joked in his voice, "do you remember saying good morning to me for the first time? I didn''t go to bed until I read that night. You woke me up early in the morning with chicken feathers. I was so angry that I was almost fried, but you stood by my bed with a smile and said good morning to me..." Li Yunze looked at he Yining. He looked at it quietly for a long time before slowly opening his mouth: "my silly Ning, good night!" He attached himself to him, and after a goodnight kiss on he Yining''s cheek, he held he Yining''s hand, put his face slightly on his arm, and slowly closed his eyes Chapter 1639 Li Yunze just accompanied him to sleep. Even if his posture was uncomfortable, he would feel very happy waiting for her to wake up Such happiness is full of fearlessness under expectation. Because when your lover is around and she is working hard for you, what right do you have to be negative?! Thinking, the corners of Li Yunze''s mouth gradually rose, showing an impulse and energy under the breath of youth. Although... He is no longer young. ¡­¡­ "One by one, which of these two pajamas do you wear?" Jane Mo chose a set of pink and blue, which looked casual, and a white, fairy looking nightdress for her to choose one by one. "Blue." Without thinking about it, he said, "that white one is too immortal. It doesn''t seem to suit me... Well, I''m raised ''rough'' now." With that, she also slapped her eyelashes with an elf''s fan, which looked very smart. "Alas, I don''t know if my Yan Yan will be quiet like you in the future!" When Jian Mo saw this one by one, she was imagining what the little princess would look like when she grew up. "It depends on how aunt Mo wants to guide." One by one took over the blue pajamas, smiled and whispered, "in fact, if I had been around my mother all the time, I would have become as persistent as her... Although persistence is a good thing, it hurts!" Jane Mo was stunned at first, and then reacted one by one. She couldn''t help laughing with a ''puff'' sound. Seeing that Jane Mo was amused by herself, she said one by one, "aunt Mo, I''ll take a bath first!" Words fall, people have turned around. When she entered the bathroom one by one, Jane Mo suddenly reacted to something "One by one, do you want to stick to it occasionally like Yining?" Jane Mo''s words were drowned in the sound of a shower. She looked at the bathroom door with a distressed face and whispered, "how do I feel that the milk bag will be guilty in the future?" Jane Mo angrily went out of the bedroom prepared for one by one and went downstairs. She saw Gu Beichen talking on the phone, and she didn''t bother. When Gu Beichen finished talking on the phone, she walked over and sat beside him with a melancholy expression on her face without talking. Gu Beichen looked at his woman''s face and said, "come on, I''m in a bad mood, come to coax me." he lowered his eyes. After a smile across the bottom of his eyes, he raised his eyes and took Jian Mo into his arms. "What''s the matter, huh?" Jane Mo glanced at Gu Beichen, drooped her shoulders and said angrily, "do you think the emotional road after the milk bag will be very bumpy?" "..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly and helplessly, "how old is he, and you will do things ten or twenty years later?" "Naturally, I don''t worry about the appearance, IQ and future status of the milk bag. No girls like him..." Jane Mo''s voice became more and more worried. It was from a mother who could exercise her heart for her child all her life. "But it''s happiness to be with people who love each other!" "You have to trust your son..." Gu Beichen didn''t worry. "Soft doesn''t work. It''s better to turn back and hard." "..." Jian Mo took a puff from the corner of her mouth and felt that his family''s general manager was too casual about his feelings for the child. He didn''t think of a way like her. He pushed him away and got up and went to Yan Yan''s side. "..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo''s back and said he was innocent! After taking a bath one by one, he didn''t sleep immediately. Just lying on the windowsill, looking up at the moon in the dark sky. The new year is coming and the moon is round. One by one, he fanned his eyes and smiled. I don''t know why. She thinks Uncle Chen and aunt Mo brought her back because dad doesn''t have time to take care of her at night... Well, take care of mom! Mom''s situation is good, or One by one slightly tooted his mouth and didn''t want to think about the bad. "Mom," said one by one, looking at the moon with his small hands holding his cheeks, leaning his head slightly and praying in his voice, "the moon is about to be round, and it will be the reunion year... You will wake up and be reunited with me and Dad, right One by one, a sweet smile was raised at the corners of the mouth, as if why Ning had woke up The sun turns and the stars move, and the dawn in the East tears the darkness of the night with its unique warmth. The rising sun is shining with the hope of a new day The pace of the new year is getting closer and closer. In the morning, it seems that there is no busyness on weekdays. People''s pace of life has become lazy and loose. They are ready to be in a good mood and meet the complex psychology of another year. He Yining''s hand gently moved in Li Yunze''s hand. When he was suddenly awakened by her slight action, her eyebrows tightened first, and then... Her eyelids moved gently. Li Yunze suddenly opened his eyes and kept holding he Yining''s hand. Because of the posture problem, he was stiff with insufficient blood supply. However, he just felt Yining''s hand. "Rub" suddenly sat up. Li Yunze looked at he Yining and saw that her eyes were moving slightly, which prompted her eyelids to move slightly. "Yining..." Li Yunze''s face was full of joy under excitement. He hoped Yining would wake up and say "good morning" to him last night, so she tried to wake up in the morning Li Yunze seemed to burst a flower in his heart. He looked at he Yining gently and called softly, trying to wake her up from her "deep sleep". "Yining..." "Yining, wake up!" "Yining..." Who''s calling her?! He Yining began to frown slightly. She was trying to wake up, but she couldn''t open her eyes. It felt like someone was pressing her eyelids. There was something flashing in her mind, so fast that she couldn''t grasp any frame, as if the film had been put in fast forward... The picture shook her head and began to hurt. The picture is getting faster and faster, and the sound is mixed in it. There are happy, unhappy... There are gentle, cold, and angry Until, one night full of blood red, there was a loud bang, which made her whole head faint. "Yining?" "Yining..." In my ears, the sound of calling is full of eardrums. Why Ning''s eyebrows are wrinkling tighter and tighter, and her breathing is short because of the heavy picture in my mind. Who''s calling her? Wait He Yining''s breath began to floss, and his hands gradually curled up his fingers. The original collision picture in my mind suddenly changed to that she was held by a person If... I know that my love for you will hurt so many people, I will not insist on loving you The words suddenly crossed in her mind, as if forcing how to be better. She ''Teng'' for a moment, and her eyes suddenly opened Chapter 1640 Why do you wake up! This is great news not only for Li Yunze, but also for everyone related to Li Yunze and he Yining years ago! "How''s Yining girl?" Li Jiyuan''s excited face was a little red. "Yining really woke up..." Li Jinxi was surprised and his face was full of joy. "Is my big baby really awake?" Yan Miao was so excited that he forgot himself. When Huo Qishen, who followed him, touched her, he raised his foot and stepped on his foot, which made him cry ''ow''. Jin shaosi didn''t speak, but his face was obviously waiting under tension. At the moment, everyone just heard that he Yining and Li Yunze had not been seen at all. Just after he Yining woke up, Li Yunze entered the examination room. When you wake up, you must have a comprehensive examination. Li Yunze should ensure that why Ning wakes up is not a reaction under the body function, but a real wake-up One after another, people rushed to the hospital. Long Xiao came with warmth. Chen Yu left the meeting to be held and rushed over. Only Gu Beichen, considering that the result is uncertain, still calmly talks with Jian Mo, watching Jian Jie and one by one over there, one playing the piano and the other playing the violin Well, the one who plays the piano is full of style. With Su Jun and his natural intelligence, he has a great master style. As for the one who plays the violin "Fortunately, Yan Yan''s hearing hasn''t been officially opened yet," Gu Beichen, who has always been indifferent, sighed. "Where is playing the violin? It''s definitely professional sabotage." Well, destroy the rhythm of Jane Jay''s piano rhythm. "The problem is, he destroyed it!" Jane Mo was already laughing and lying in Gu Beichen''s arms, "look at the strong outfit of the milk bag. In fact, she has made a few wrong sounds and pretended to be right... It''s too funny!" "..." Gu Beichen frowned slightly at Jian Mo, "Mo''er, are you sure you''re Xiaojie''s mother Make complaints about it, and then he got up and kissed him in Beichen. "I must be a mother, he Tucao me, I make complaints about him." Gu Beichen smiled helplessly and shook his head. It was too late to comment on Jian Mo''s words. Suddenly, a sound of "bang" rang again. Gu Beichen and Jian Mo both looked at the past He saw one by one laughing with his violin. Jane Jay''s face is a little black. Like that, he always make complaints about others and his dislike of others. He is just like a normal child, and has a feeling of anger in anger. Is a little bit of a black man. "I said I would disturb you... Hahaha..." they all bent over with a smile and shook their small heads proudly. The long ponytail moved with her shaking. "You also said that I must not disturb you!" Gu Beichen and Jian Mo looked at each other. They knew that they had just pulled them one by one on purpose. For a while, the sound is slow, and for a while, the sound is wrong "Tut Tut, Gu Zong, your son is not calm!" "Mainly, one by one, it seems that he knows where to shoot, which can make Xiaojie uneasy..." Jian Mo and Gu Beichen looked at each other again and felt that this was a very bad start... Because the starting line was "unfair"! ¡­¡­ In Huakang hospital, people waited anxiously. Huo Qishen leaned on the table of the nurse station with his mouth turned. In that way, he had a feeling of abandonment that he didn''t know. "Shit, I didn''t see you on the road and kindly sent you here. Can you have such a good opportunity to show your concern for your best friend?" Huoqi snorted coldly. The nurse on one side heard it and asked with a smile: "I said, young master Huo, why are you so destined to be a doctor of inflammation? It''s OK to see a doctor every time. After all, you''re a patient and she''s a doctor... But how can you meet on the road this early morning? There''s no fate." "Bah!" Huo Qishen immediately retorted, "I have a special fate with who, and I can''t have a fate with her... How unlucky is this fate?!" The nurses laughed one by one. In that way, they didn''t agree with his words at all. "So you know that fate is sometimes annoying?!" Fang Xiran came out of the lift and heard Huo Qi''s words, "Tucao" said, "so, I and you from small to big, your mouth make complaints about" fate ", I am also unlucky! With a puff, the nurse couldn''t help laughing at Huo Qishen''s shriveled appearance. Fang Xiran ignored Huo Qishen''s angry appearance and went directly to Jin shaosi. Different from the dislike of Huo Qishen, Fang Xiran, who came to Jin shaosi, immediately said with a little daughter posture: "is Yining really awake?!" "Yes." "Jin shoushao is waiting for everyone to check." Huo Qi deep looked at Fang''s hare''s make complaints about Jin Shaosi''s ingratiate appearance. He felt very cold in his heart. He said, "Jin Shaosi''s predestination to you, I think he also feels bad luck!" There was much joy in the tension outside, but in the inspection room, all inspections were carried out in a calm and orderly manner. "Li Shao, I''m normal here!" "Li Shao, there is no problem with the inspection..." "Li Shao..." The doctors who examined separately reported to Li Yunze one by one. Finally, after Li Yunze looked at all the data without problems, he breathed out and looked at he Yining. The corners of his mouth gradually raised a comfortable smile. He Yining was sent back to the ward. Although she woke up, she didn''t have time to say a word. There are many people around the ward, but they are not too concentrated, for fear of causing pressure on he Yining who just woke up. "Yining, do you feel all right?" Li Yunze asked softly. He Yining blinked his eyes gently, indicating that he felt good and didn''t feel particularly uncomfortable. Li Yunze smiled, raised his hand and gently stroked he Yining''s face. His voice was sour with excitement and said, "Yining, you can wake up... It''s really good." Why Ning frowned slightly and looked down slightly. He could still see Li Yunze touching her hand. Subconsciously, she moved slightly. "What''s wrong?" Li Yunze thought she was uncomfortable. Why would you rather shake your head and move your mouth, trying to say something, but you didn''t say it at last. The crowd was so excited that they didn''t notice the difference between her at this moment Yanmiao held he Yining''s hand and his eyes were red. "Yining, if you dare to scare me like this next time, be careful that I will hang you together with Zihan!" Why did Ning pull a faint smile from the corners of her mouth, stare at yanmiao angrily, and ask, "are you willing?" Jin shaosi stood at the end of the bed and looked at he Yining. He suddenly frowned slightly... His sight crossed yanmiao and fell on Li Yunze. Chapter 1641 The feeling of Yining made Jin shaosi a little strange. It seemed that her performance towards Li Yunze was too dull after she woke up. It''s not resistance. It''s like... What''s missing under normal circumstances. Is he thinking too much? Jin shaosi frowned and looked at he Yining again. She looked the same. She just woke up and didn''t have a good spirit. After being concerned, they didn''t gather in the ward again for fear that he Yining, who had just woke up, would have a bad rest, resulting in a physical load. Xiao Jing called Gu Beichen and said with a smile in his mouth, "Chen Shao, why would you rather wake up? Everything is fine..." "Oh?!" Gu Beichen''s eagle eyes slightly picked a faint radian, and the thin lips also overflowed with a shallow smile, "I know, I''ll go and have a look later." "Good!" Xiao Jing answered and hung up. "Uncle Chen, is mom awake?!" Observe Gu Beichen''s expression one by one, or since the morning. She didn''t know why. She just felt that her father didn''t pick her up last night because her mother wanted to wake up. At this moment, Gu Beichen smiled after she answered the phone. Because she was too urgent, she forgot that Jian Mo didn''t know this time. "What?" Jian Mo just brought aunt Luo''s cut fruit out of the kitchen and heard one by one, "what''s'' Mom woke up ''?" She looked at Gu Beichen. "Mr Gu, don''t tell me that it''s time to wake up after sleeping. I''ll call you back!" She felt wrong yesterday, but she didn''t think about bad things. It seems that the general manager of her family seems to be hiding something from her Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and looked at them one by one. He wondered why Ning had woke up anyway. It didn''t matter if Jian Mo knew. First, he nodded one by one and motioned her to change her clothes. "Go change your clothes and I''ll take you to the hospital." "Yes!" One by one nodded hurriedly and went upstairs to change his clothes. Jane Mo didn''t speak, so she waited for Gu Beichen to explain the situation. "Yining drove to bump into each other because of protecting brother Yunze''s research..." Gu Beichen said with a faint sigh. "It was the night when he was born." Jane Mo wrung her eyebrows and thought of Xiao Jing''s look that morning and the fact that her general manager Gu had been busy all day. "I really trust you. You don''t say such a big thing!" Jane Mo snorted coldly. "It''s not that you''re in confinement. Am I afraid you''ll cry?" Gu Beichen came forward and gently hugged Jian Mo in his arms. "However, Yining has woke up this morning. Yunze has just checked and everything is fine..." Jane Mo was sad, but it wasn''t what had just happened. Why Yining woke up again, so she wasn''t so sad. "No wonder they came back one by one. Yining wants to communicate with foreigners..." Jian Mo murmured, "I''m very strange, but what they say is the same as true..." she pushed Gu Beichen away and glanced angrily, "it''s difficult for you to do one by one in order not to let me know!" Jane Mo was distressed. At the thought of being strong one by one, her nose was still sour. "Don''t cry!" Gu Beichen said overbearing, "they are so strong. Do you mean to cry?" After a pause, he released the bait, "if you can hold your emotions, I''ll take you to see Yining later, or you can only be at home!" Jane Mo was so angry that she kicked Gu Zong''s calf. She found out that her family''s general manager''s personal design is more and more broken! ¡­¡­ "What''s the matter? How do you feel that Yining wakes up? You''re not so happy?" Fang Xiran found that Jin shaosi looked thoughtful since he came out of the ward. Jin shaosi glanced coldly at Xi ran below, and then said with a deep look: "I feel something wrong with Yining." "Huh?" Fang Xiran was stunned, and then hurriedly asked, "what''s wrong? Isn''t everything checked good? It''s also good to see the State..." She said, her mind had replayed what had just happened, and she didn''t feel anything wrong at all. Jin shaosi frowned slightly and looked over Li Jiyuan who was talking to Li Jinxi and Chen Yu. He didn''t answer Fang Xiran, but just walked over, "Professor Li, there''s something I want to consult..." "Good!" Li Jiyuan didn''t stop smiling because of why Yining woke up. He said to Li Jinxi and Chen Yu, "ah Qiao stewed medicinal food last night. I thought if Yining woke up today, I could drink... You two go back and get it." "OK, Dad!" Li Jinxi answered, nodded slightly with Jin shaosi, and left with Chen Yu. After Li Jiyuan watched them go, he looked at Jin shaosi and asked, "what''s up?" Mr. Jin glanced at the front. "Professor Li, let''s go there and talk." "Good!" Li Jiyuan nodded, inexplicably because of the mystery of Mr. Jin and some nervous instincts. "Professor Li, I''d like to ask..." Jin shaosi asked, "will a person only lose part of his memory, or just lose his memory of something... I won''t describe it specifically. Is it possible that if he remembers everything, he will only forget one thing?!" Li Jiyuan didn''t know why Jin shaosi asked this suddenly, but he didn''t think much about the answer: "in this case, there are..." he paused and then continued, "when the patient''s memory is too eager to escape from something, or because the harm of something is too great, it may be selectively forgotten..." Jin shaosi naturally heard of such a situation, but he didn''t encounter it around him, so he wanted to get confirmation from Li Jiyuan. "However, such a situation is relatively less likely than amnesia." Li Jiyuan looked at Jin shaosi and said, "after all, the memory of the brain is a whole and forgets one thing alone. In this case, unless the trauma of that thing is too great!" Jin shaosi frowned slightly and wondered why he would rather have such a situation? However, at that time, her attitude towards Li Yunze didn''t seem to forget Li Yunze and remember everyone''s appearance Besides, Li Yunze is so important in her life, how can she forget it? But at that time, Li Yunze was gentle to her. What was her subconscious resistance? It can''t be that she forgot her love for Li Yunze?! The question quickly crossed Jin shaosi''s mind, because he couldn''t prove anything now. He had to think about it himself and couldn''t say it "What''s the matter?" Seeing that Jin shaosi was distracted, Li Jiyuan twisted his eyebrows and asked, "why did you suddenly ask this?" Chapter 1642 Jin shaosi shook his head, "it''s all right. I just suddenly thought of this thing..." Li Jiyuan is a person who has experienced the wind and rain. Looking at Jin shaosi''s instant recovery of calm, he asked with a slight frown: "do you think Yining may have a single memory disappear?" Major Jin sighed and nodded to Li Jiyuan. Li Jiyuan frowned and didn''t say much about Jin shaosi''s line of sight. He just glanced in the direction of the ward and said, "will this happen? I can only wait until I look back and feel better..." "Yes." Jin shaosi answered. He was ambivalent at the moment. It seems that I hope Yining can forget his love for Li Yunze, but it seems that I don''t want to. Forget, Yining can not be so tired of love, or fall into the dilemma of Li Yunhao''s affair and his love for Li Yunze because of his love for Li Yunze. But if you forget The life before Yining seems to have become meaningless. After all, she spent 20 years in love with Li Yunze and never changed... What kind of persistence is that?! Jin shaosi narrowed his eyes slightly. He admitted that he had another selfishness. If Yining forgets Li Yunze, does he still have a chance?! Thinking, Jin shaosi subconsciously looked at what Huo Qishen said and looked disgusted with Fang Xiran Slightly wrinkling his eyebrows, he clearly thought about Yining, but subconsciously looked at Fang Xiran''s behavior, and his mind became complicated. Gu Beichen came soon with Jian Mo, Yi and Xiao Jie. The Dragon owl and warm haven''t gone yet. Several people look at each other, and the Dragon owl nods. "Yunze is still in the ward. You go and have a look first, and then go to lunch together!" The Dragon owl said and looked at the time. After tossing around, it''s already past eleven o''clock "OK." Gu Beichen answered and took Jian Mo to the ward. Before that, one by one and Jane Jie had gone first. "Mom!" One by one, the little face was buried in he Yining''s neck and gently rubbed for comfort. The weakness hidden under the strength all the time was also aroused completely because my mother woke up, and suddenly tears poured out uncontrollably. He Yining raised his hand, gently hugged one by one, and said softly, "stop crying, good one by one... You see, mom has woke up and will get out of bed soon, right? So, you should laugh!" "Yes!" One by one got up, wiped his tears, smiled and kissed he Yining on his face, "mom is great, one by one will be great..." Then she raised her small mouth and gave him a big smile. He Yining woke up and dispelled the depression and sadness that had filled the hospital these days. The medical staff in the whole hospital are happy for Li Yunze and his family Soon, Shuya''s people also got the news. Those who had a rest came to see why Yining. For a time, Huakang became lively Long Xiao and Gu Beichen ate in a restaurant near the hospital. "What does boss long have to say?" Gu Beichen asked. The Dragon owl looked at Gu Beichen with a deep look in his indifferent sight and said, "I feel that Yining woke up this time, and Yunze''s road is not so smooth." "Why?" Jian Mo subconsciously looks at the Dragon owl, and warmth also looks at him. Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo and then looked at the Dragon owl. Jun''s face was also full of doubts. "Yining loves Yunze so much that there is no external obstruction now. How can eldest brother think that they are not so smooth?" Jane Mo was confused. Subconsciously, she also resisted this situation. The Dragon owl slowly leaned back on the chair, looked slightly deep at the warmth and said, "when Yunze was close to Yining just now, did you see the Dodge under her physical instinct?" She frowned warmly and said, "I didn''t notice..." she looked at several people, "my attention is happy!" The Dragon owl lowered his eyes and smiled, then raised his eyes and said, "it''s just my guess. I feel that Yunze will be very hard to wake up this time." The words of the Dragon owl were ambiguous, which made the two women here not understand, or because the subconscious thought for the good and instinctively did not understand. However, Gu Beichen understood the meaning of the Dragon owl. Yining everything seems normal, but his mind about Yunze... May be too hurt, so he will choose to forget? If so, Gu Beichen doesn''t think there''s anything bad. Everyone can''t get anything without paying. Yining has paid all her youth to love Yunze. Yunze naturally wants to return more love so that Yining can feel it. Not because of the habit of love! ¡­¡­ "Li Shao, you''ve been busy all morning. I''ll accompany Yining for a while. Take one by one to dinner first?" Yan Miao came in. "If you don''t go to dinner, you won''t go one by one." Li Yunze took a look and saw the little girl smiling at him and grinning, "mom is awake. I''m full of happiness!" Li Yunze''s eyes were deep and looked at he Yining. "You go to dinner first, and Yan Yan will accompany me." He Yining had a look of secretly panting at the bottom of his eyes. However, several happy people at the moment didn''t find it. "I''ll take you to dinner when you drink the soup." Li Yunze spoke and decided. He Yining looked at the soup bowl in his hand, his mouth moved back and forth, endured it, and finally did not refuse, but nodded. After Li Yunze fed he Yining the soup, he was ready to take him to the hospital restaurant for dinner. Before leaving, tell yanmiao that if Yining is tired, let her sleep Yan Miao smiled. "Li Shao, Yining and I are both doctors. You don''t have to explain these things." Li Yunze looked at he Yining and felt a little too nervous. "Then I''ll take one by one to dinner." Seeing why he Ning nodded, Li Yunze motioned one by one and poked out his big palm. One by one handed his little hand to Li Yunze, turned back to he Yining and said, "Mom, we''ll come back after eating." "Well, go!" One by one grinned and went to dinner with Li Yunze happily Li Yunze and one by one arrived at the elevator. He found his mobile phone left in the ward. "Wait for me, I''ll get my mobile phone." "Well, good!" Nod one by one. Li Yunze let go one by one, turned and walked to he Yining ward In the ward, yanmiao poured a glass of water for he Yining, "what are you thinking? So distracted?" She smiled and joked, "is this waking up and feeling that everything is not true?" "It''s not true!" He Yining frowned at yanmiao and asked curiously, "Yanyan, why did Li Yunze suddenly be so... Gentle to me? I feel a little seeping!" Why did Ning''s words fall? Li Yunze''s steps to enter the ward suddenly stagnated Chapter 1643 Yanmiao''s hand, which was supposed to pass the cup, suddenly froze on the way. She waited for her eyes to look at he Yining, just like looking at monsters. "What are you doing? Why are you looking at me like this..." he Yining moved back slightly and looked puzzled. "Yining..." Yan Miao looked at he Yining''s mouth and shouted. He didn''t know what to say. Why did Ning see that yanmiao didn''t continue to say, twisted his eyebrows and looked at her suspiciously, and said softly, "huh?" "Who am I?" Yan Miao asked. "Why did you stare at me again?" She left her mouth in disgust. "Then you asked me why Li Yunze was so kind to you and said he was gentle to you?" Yan Miao turned his eyes. "I thought you were awake and your brain forgot to wake up!" "..." why would you rather frown, "why don''t I ask? I just feel strange to ask..." Yan Miao looked at he Yining, looked for a long time, and gradually frowned. He Yining was flustered when she looked at him. "What''s the matter..." she glanced around with some uneasy eyes, "is it strange for me to ask this question?" "Isn''t it strange?" Yan Miao asked. Yining''s appearance is completely without memory loss, but why did he ask the question ''why is Li Yunze gentle to her''? "Yining," yanmiao held her breath, "that... You still..." she hesitated and asked, "do you still love Li Yunze?" "What?" Why did ningdun stare, "still love... Li Yunze? Still..." she asked suspiciously after adding the word "return", the question is, when did I love Li Yunze and why did I add a "return" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Yan Miao was so frightened by what he Yining said that he widened his eyes, opened his mouth, and wrote unbelievable on his whole face. Li Yunze, who was still standing at the door, was instantly filled with something, as if it would explode if he didn''t notice. What did he... Hear? Did he just hear the hallucination, or did he really hear Yining say... No love?! Li Yunze''s breathing became rapid, which was a physical reaction caused by instinctive fear. One by one still stood in the elevator and waited. Seeing that Li Yunze didn''t enter the ward, he slightly deviated his small head and looked puzzled, "why doesn''t dad go in?" Thinking about it, I walked over curiously one by one The atmosphere in the ward became strange because of why Ning asked yanmiao''s words. The corner of Yan Miao''s mouth twitched several times, and his lips kept moving. He didn''t know how to deal with the rhetorical question of he Yining. I don''t know how long it took, Yan Miao asked hard, "Yining, have you... Never loved Li Yunze?" She asked with certainty. "Yes!" He Yining answered very seriously. The expression on his face had nothing to do except the doubt that yanmiao asked such a question. Yan Miao frowned. She looked at why she was rather for a while. The only explanation was... Yi Ning loved Li Yunze. She was tired, so she chose to forget her love for him. However, after so much experience, they finally gave up after the rain? Just one last step! Yining retreated at the last step Yan Miao swallowed as soon as he arrived at the door of the ward and asked, "since you don''t love Li Yunze, why did you have children with him and marry him?" At that time, when Yining saw 11, she obviously knew 11 and that she and Li Yunze had children At present, Yining should just forget his love for Li Yunze, and others should remember. She wants to see how Yining explains! "Yan Yan, are you amnesic or stupid? Don''t you know?" He Yining twisted his eyebrows and thought yanmiao was a little strange. "I lost..." yanmiao gritted his teeth and endured the retort, "OK, just think I lost my memory. Why do you say?" "Isn''t it because you have one after one night after drinking, so you can only get married one by one?" Although he Yining was surprised by yanmiao''s question, he replied, "we have no feelings. We live our own lives... We can''t suddenly find that he is in love with me because I had a car accident!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Now, Yan Miao twitched more violently at the corners of his mouth after listening to he Yining''s explanation, "ha ha, I don''t know how to refute your explanation!" Li Yunze''s face has been very black. At this moment, he doesn''t need anyone to say. He already knows that Yining woke up, but he forgot his love for him In my mind, I suddenly crossed the scene of Yining''s coma in a car accident Despair and give up the eyes, the last reluctant to part with him! Yes! Is the last reluctant to part, at that time he did not think deeply "Dad," said one by one, holding Li Yunze''s big palm with small hands, looking up and blinking curiously, "so I came so casually?!" "..." Li Yunze frowned slightly, looked down at his daughter, and took 11''s small hand with his big palm. "11, it seems that you are wrong at the moment." Of course, the problem at this moment is: Mom doesn''t remember that she loves her father very much! Incidentally, she also came casually However, my father looks very sad at the moment. She can''t poke my father''s heart! The voice of the conversation between father and daughter was not small. He Yining and yanmiao in the ward naturally heard it. He Yining was embarrassed, while Yan Miao had a headache. Didn''t the father and daughter go to dinner? Why did you run back "I''ll come and get my cell phone." Li Yunze let go of his hands one by one and stepped into the ward indifferently. Under the different eyes of he Yining and yanmiao, he took his mobile phone and looked at the two people, "you continue to talk!" "..." Yan Miao''s head hurt more. What does Li Yunze mean by this performance? I''ve just had a conversation with one by one. Obviously, I''ve heard it from both big and small, but this performance... Is it too calm? Yan Miao thought, and his sight moved with Li Yunze. He Yining was calm at the moment except for the embarrassment just now. In her consciousness, she and Li Yunze had no love, so he heard nothing However, let one by one hear that she was drunk all night, and she felt a little guilty. After all, adults, children are innocent anyway. The whole family inside and outside the ward was breathing. It was so strange that yanmiao couldn''t understand it. She looked at Li Yunze and he Yining... Her sight fell on the one who had been standing at the door and sighed softly. Why is the love between Yining and Li Yunze so difficult? The ninety-nine and eighty-one difficulties have passed, and they are not complete yet "Oh, yes!" Li Yunze came to the door of the ward and suddenly stopped and looked back at he Yining. Chapter 1644 He Yining looked up at Li Yunze''s eyes and listened to his calm voice. He said emotionally, "I fell in love with you after your car accident, so ah, you''d better be ready to fall in love with me, or I won''t let go. Even if you fall in love with others, it''s probably useless!" "..." why Ning opened his mouth slightly and looked stunned. I don''t know whether it was because Li Yunze said he fell in love with her or his overbearing words. Yanmiao silently praised Li Yunze. He can change his mind according to he Yining when things happen. She felt... This man really loves Yining now. Not because of habits, nor because of how much two people have experienced... Just fell in love with a woman called "he Yining". "I took one to dinner first." Li Yunze stared deeply at why Yining, then turned around and left one by one. I went to the cafeteria and took a small plate of food in the cafeteria. "Dad!" One by one, he sandwiched a fried egg. Li Yunze dug up a spoonful of stewed beef with potatoes, "huh?" One by one, he looked up at Li Yunze, "what should I do now?" Her voice was a little murmured. Li Yunze looked back at his daughter and rubbed her little head. "Eat first." "Yes." Nod one by one, and then the father and daughter continue to pick dishes in the fast food area. "You eat first, I''ll get you a bowl of soup..." Li Yunze said after putting down the plate. "I think there seems to be mushroom soup today." "OK." Nodding one by one, he subconsciously watched Li Yunze turn around and walk to the buffet area. One by one, he looked at his father''s back and sighed, "Dad, I''m going to worry about you..." Li Yunze didn''t know that his daughter was worried about him in her little mind. Now he had only one idea. What a wise choice he had to get the certificate with Yining at the beginning. After beating the soup, Li Yunze turned and walked one by one. Li Yunze didn''t seem to have so many waves. If Yining forgets his love for him, he will catch up with her and remember. It doesn''t matter if you can''t remember. You can fall in love again anyway Yining has been chasing him for twenty years. How could he not push Yining in front of the door of happiness? Father and daughter chatted while eating. This is a recent routine. It''s nothing strange for others in the hospital. However, why do you wake up today? The expressions of father and daughter are more or less mixed with some thoughts, which makes everyone strange. "How do you feel... Li Shaohe seems a little worried?" A nurse whispered to the people on the side. "I guess I''m so happy that I forgot to express my emotions a little!" "No..." "What can I do? I can''t. doctor he wakes up. Don''t be a little unhappy!" Some people''s rhetorical questions made everyone speechless. "Dad, do you have any countermeasures?" After drinking the soup one by one, he asked, "Mom seems to remember everything, but she doesn''t remember that she loves you." "After enduring for a long time, you''re not afraid of my heart?" Li Yunze looked at his daughter and said with a smile. "I''m afraid, so I''ve endured it for a long time." One by one drooped his small shoulders, "but I''m worried... In case my mother wants to divorce you later, shall I tell you or my mother?" "Don''t worry, it won''t happen." Li Yunze raised his eyebrow. "I can''t guarantee anywhere else, but in Los Angeles... As long as your father and I don''t want to divorce, no one can give the divorce certificate to your mother!" "Really?" One by one, I was puzzled. Li Yunze attached himself and gently pinched his daughter''s tender and smooth face, "it''s necessary." "Do you have any countermeasures against your mother?" In fact, I am more concerned about this. As long as dad has countermeasures against mom, then Dad and mom will not be separated. Naturally, there will be no worry about who she needs to follow! "Yes." Li Yunze answered very seriously, "I''ll use all the tricks your mother used to use on me..." "But I heard aunt Yanyan say that you don''t like your mother''s previous tricks." One by one tooted his mouth, "will you use those, and now my mother won''t like them?" "Oh, that doesn''t matter. I''m a man. I''m ashamed..." I said solemnly all the time. "Women are afraid of being entangled. I''ve been entangled all the time, and she has to be soft for me." "Dad..." one by one shouted seriously. "Huh?" "You are so domineering!" One by one, he spoke highly of Li Yunze. Li Yunze smiled, with the support of his daughter and the strength of Yining trying to wake up... What reason does he have to complain about himself to get it? The two most important girls in his life, they are all around him, so he can work hard for them! Yining has no memory loss and no residual brain trauma... But she has forgotten the most important thing in her life, the love for Li Yunze. When everyone knew about it, they lamented that fate made people angry one by one. But several people who understand the reason don''t feel strange. "What''s this called?" Gu Beichen had to dig at his brother at the critical moment, "no Zuo no die!" The Dragon owl immediately lowered his eyes and flashed a shallow smile at the bottom of his eyes. In those days, Beichen wanted to divorce Jian Mo and propose again. Who knows that she missed it, and her woman "ran away" with other men. That''s what Yunze said about Beichen. "You are a man who will repay for your vengeance..." Li Yunze rolled his eyes dissatisfied. Gu Beichen snorted coldly and didn''t answer. On the other hand, Jian Mo couldn''t laugh. "Gu Zong is really careful." She said with a smile, "Chen Yu used to laugh at him for four and a half years. When he got married, he was corrected by President Gu?" Warm suddenly wondered, "has ah Xiao ever laughed at Beichen? Has he been corrected?" "Don''t worry, the Dragon boss''s eyes that see through everything, do you think there will be something for Beichen?" Li Yunze said, "besides, even if the Dragon boss jokes about Beichen, he won''t retaliate." For the Dragon boss, Gu Beichen was filled with awe. Here, only warm one doesn''t know Gu Beichen''s dark experience in Mo palace and Britain. He subconsciously thinks that Gu Beichen doesn''t "retaliate" against the Dragon owl because he has his brother''s respect for his eldest brother. Of course, the main thing is that she also thinks that long Xiao is too careful. I''m afraid it''s difficult for people to grasp the big handle. "I''ll see if Yining wakes up..." Jane Mo gets up. "Fortunately, she hasn''t forgotten my feelings with her." The warmth was immediately laughed by Jane morna as if nothing had happened, "I''ll go with you." Li Yunze sighed lightly, "it''s not that a family doesn''t enter a house... Jian Mo, you''re learning bad with Beichen now." Jane Mo picked her eyebrows and smiled at Gu Beichen. She went to he Yining ward with warmth. After the two women walked away, Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze and asked, "is there any drug addiction left on Yining?" Chapter 1645 "During Yining''s coma, I test her blood every three days..." Li Yunze said. "It wasn''t an injection, but there was a small amount of contamination. During the coma, the drug addiction couldn''t attack, but it passed." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered. Drug addiction is not a small thing. Why do you wake up now? That little poison in a small range has not caused anything, so we can rest assured. "At present, judging from Yining''s situation, it is estimated that his emotional illness is better..." Li Yunze felt a little embarrassed. Yining''s emotional illness is basically a symptom suppressed by his love for him, his guilt for his eldest brother, and his neglect. If you don''t love now, naturally... There will be no so-called emotional illness. Gu Beichen looked at Li Yunze and his sight became deep. "Yining forgot his love for you... What about brother Yunhao?" In a word, we looked at each other. The Dragon owl frowned slightly and said calmly, "if you forget it together, it''s best not to forget..." "My way is more difficult!" Li Yunze said the result. If Yining really didn''t forget the big brother, it would be really difficult for her to accept him under the obstruction of love and this matter. Lin Nannan rushed over when everyone was silent. "No one has told me that my wife is awake." Lin dissatisfied with the south. "If not for my eyes, I don''t know at the moment!" The three men looked at Lin Nan''s sleepless appearance and looked at each other. Gu Beichen said, "we''re separated. You''re expected to play until the morning. If you have a rare vacation, no one will inform you." After a pause, he glanced at Lin''s dissatisfaction to the South and said slowly, "anyway, he woke up and came over." Lin Nan sat down, took the kettle, poured himself a glass of water and asked Li Yunze, "how''s the second sister-in-law?" "It''s no bad for you, except that I''m a little upset." Li Yunze spoke faintly. In the end, it used to be a circle. Lin Nanan and he Yining are also very familiar. After all, he Yining didn''t do less bad things with Lin Nan when he was a child. Well, bad things are usually related to Li Yunze After all, he Yining is a man who only cares about Li Yunze. But this person who only cares about Li Yunze, now, he doesn''t care about Li Yunze most! ¡­¡­ Fang Xilan looked at Jin shaosi. She always seemed to have plenty of energy in front of him. It was obvious that she was not in a good mood at the moment. Jin shaosi stood in the vineyard with his trousers pocket in his hands, and the sun shone on him. He couldn''t tell whether it was loneliness or what? Tan Zhonglang is leading people to turn the soil. During the Spring Festival, a batch of new grape varieties will be introduced. Recently, he has been studying the acidity and alkalinity of the soil in order to achieve the best soil for cultivating grape trees. Occasionally, he would look at young secretary Jin and Fang Xiran and sigh. Xu is the wrong payment of his feelings in this life. Instead, he hopes that his brothers who struggle together can get out of the strange circle and pursue new feelings. "Now why would you rather forget your love for Li Yunze..." Fang Xi ran tried to control, as if afraid that he would become sharp because of something, "are you going to..." She bit her lower lip and didn''t go on asking. Fang Xiran was suddenly afraid of his own question and was even more afraid, Jin shaosi''s answer. Before Jin shaosi "gave up", most of the reason was that he Yining had only one Li Yunze in his heart, and there was no room for other men. But now this situation is gone He Yining "doesn''t love" Li Yunze, and even has no interest in him at all. Fang Xiran''s nose is a little astringent, and her tears do not belong to soldiers like her. However, emotionally, she is just a perceptual woman. Jin shaosi didn''t speak, but his eyes narrowed gradually. What does Fang Xiran want to ask? He knows. However, at this moment, his heart was confused. He didn''t know how to answer Fang Xiran, nor... How to answer himself. Seeing that he didn''t answer, Fang Xiran smiled with self mockery, forced the tears that seemed to overflow back, took back his eyes and looked at shaosi Jin again, "I know..." She lowered her eyes and forbeared, turned slowly and hard, went to the parking place, and walked past with heavy and sad steps. She can be brave, but when a man insists on another woman to destroy others'' marriage, her persistence becomes ridiculous! Fang Xiran really smiled, astringent but self deprecating. I don''t know if her steps were too heavy. She suddenly stopped and her eyes fell in front. Her eyes seemed to be stung by something at once, and tears'' Shua ''gushed out. How long has she not tried that burning feeling? The last time I cried... Was when a comrade in arms died a few years ago! Unexpectedly, for so long, I shed tears again because of love Fang Xiran''s self mockery at the corners of her mouth became bigger and bigger. She held her mouth tightly and kept swallowing sadness. However, sadness seemed to spread all over her body Fang Xiran took a deep breath and raised his feet again. At the right time, Jin shaosi turned around and looked at Fang Xiran''s back. There were complex emotions at the bottom of his eyes, which made him confused. He opened his lips and wanted to speak, but in the end, he held back. Without a clear understanding of his complicated thoughts, he felt that... If he gave Fang Xiran any hope now, it would be irresponsible. After all, the current sadness is a wound that can be healed. And the sadness after giving and pulling away... Is the eternal pain! He didn''t want to hurt this woman. At least, she was always pure in the whole incident... Pure, wanted to get him. Fang Xiran left the vineyard with a sharp speed When people got outside, Fang Xiran hung up Bluetooth and dialed Lin Nannan''s phone. "Why?" Lin Nan''s voice was a little lazy. "Come and drink with me!" Fang Xiran said. "Shit," Lin Nanan immediately burst into foul language, "Fang Xiran, don''t let me go in the army. It''s not easy for me to take a holiday, and you won''t let me go!" "Will you come?" Fang Xiran''s voice was firm. Lin Nan had a headache. "I don''t want to come back and soak in wine every day... Can''t you spare me?" "Good!" Fang Xi ran snorted coldly, "then don''t expect to pick someone from me!" Then she wanted to hang up "Hey, hey, no, no!" Lin Nannan immediately changed a flattering face, "sister, can''t I call you sister?" "Will you come?" "Come on, I''ll be right there!" "He Jia winery!" "..." Lin yanked to the corner of his mouth, looked at Li Yunze, listened to the voice of the phone being hung up, and said bitterly, "second brother, I''m blocking the gun for you!" Chapter 1646 Li Yunze frowned, looked at Lin Nannan, and heard him say, "Fang Xilan asked me for a drink. I heard her bitter and sad voice. It''s probably that her feelings are not smooth..." He hummed, took a sip of water and drank, "what else do you go to Ho''s winery to drink... Shit, why are women so hypocritical?!" After Tucao heard, Lin make complaints about everyone and then goes away. "It''s right to practice in the army for several years in the south." Li Yunze smiled and looked at Lin''s back as he left South. "Yes." The Dragon owl faintly answered, "old Lin is still old and spicy. You can still see what road his grandson is suitable for." "Yes, there are so many descendants of the Lin family, and many of them go to the sea, but old Lin insisted on going south." Li Yunze answered and looked at Gu Beichen. "In other words, what mission did he bring back to the south this time?" "I don''t know." Gu Beichen''s eyes became deep and bottomless, "it''s always... Not a small thing!" After talking, he and the Dragon owl looked at each other. Vaguely, they always felt that things were a little strange If Nanfang really wants their help, even if he loses, can they not help? What on earth makes him so cautious?! ¡­¡­ Time is spent in the good development of everything In the twinkling of an eye, the new year has become particularly meaningful because he Yining wakes up. There are no women in Los Angeles except Lin Nanan. There are three people left. Whether they are perfect or not, at least they are lifelong entanglers who have pulled the evidence and complied with the law. Dragon owl and warm had planned to stay in Los Angeles for the new year and attend Li Yunze and he Yining''s wedding. But now, they have no hope of holding a wedding. In addition, long Ziyi called them back to Longdao for the new year, and they simply left. But this year in Los Angeles, not because the Dragon owl and warmth have gone, but because the team in the circle is growing and becoming lively On the fifth day of the lunar new year, cen Lanxi held a large party in the manor. There are no people who are hypocritical and make face Kung Fu. They are all insiders and family members of Gu Beichen''s generation. "When will Yining be discharged?" Jian Mo asked Gu Beichen while drinking the soup specially stewed by Cen Lanxi. "The body is not completely well..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo who was worried. "Yunze is not allowed to leave the hospital. It is estimated that it will be the 10th and 15th day of the first day of the year as soon as possible!" "..." Jian Mo sighed and looked across Chu Zixiao, who leaned lazily on the wall column outside and held a can of beer in his hand. "It''s the new year. Look at Zixiao and Yunze. It''s really sad." Gu Beichen''s thin lips overflowed with a smile, "then you give Zhang Nian a holiday?" "Those who celebrate the Chinese new year do not have holidays and are inhuman." After Jian Mo finished the soup, Gu Beichen took it and put it on the table. His action was very natural. "Besides, I think they really need to calm down..." Jane Mo frowned. "If both of them are stuck in their hearts, they can''t be together for a long time." "Yes." Gu Beichen faintly answered. His sight crossed Li Yunze and a touch of jealousy crossed his eyes. At this moment, Li Yunze bent slightly and asked his daughter to wipe his mouth Hey, I don''t know if his little princess will be so considerate in the future. One year, have a peaceful and happy life. In the twinkling of an eye, after the sixth day of junior high school, the people on holiday came to work one by one with post holiday syndrome. "Hey?" Lin Nan sat on the roof, curled up one leg, stepped on the roof and looked at Fang Xiran leaning against the hood. "You''re going back to the team tomorrow. You really don''t want to work harder?" Fang Xiran crossed the corner of her mouth to laugh at herself, took a deep breath, took out her hand in her pocket and held it behind her. Her voice said with a trace of boredom: "there are some things that you really can''t do with your efforts..." then, she turned her head to Lin Nannan and smiled provocatively, "otherwise, why didn''t your little green plum see you work hard?" "Shit!" Lin Nan suddenly blew his hair, "Fang Xiran, I''m comforting you, but you build your happiness on my pain!" "Dissatisfied? Come on, have a fight!" Fang Xiran provoked. "As far as your ability is concerned, you''d better keep your eggs to teach those recruits a lesson!" Lin Nan sneered, "don''t find someone to vent. Come to me to vent." Fang Xiran drooped his shoulders bitterly, watched the sunset dye the sky red, and said slowly, "I''ve been on vacation for so long, and I didn''t get a man at last, which shows that I''m not so important in this man''s heart... I don''t give up, but I can''t support another woman living in this man''s heart, and I can''t move away." "He Yining belongs to my second brother. Jin shaosi can''t get it in his life." Lin Nan said, the man has jumped out of the car, "go, brother, take you to drag racing. The blood cells are cool. What the fuck can''t be put down?" Fang Xi ran stared, "be careful to look back. Old Lin peeled your skin!" "It''s all right, he can''t fight now..." Lin Nan blinked his eyes. Fang Xiran burst out laughing and got into the car. He Lin went south to experience speed and... Passion! "Fang Xiran..." "Huh?" Lin Nanan asked loudly when the speed was getting faster and faster: "if one day, your lover and the interests of the country and the people let you choose, how would you choose?" Fang Xi ran brushed a touch of astringency on the corner of his mouth, but in his eyes, he said firmly: "the interests of the country and the people first... I am ready to sacrifice at any time!" This is the soldier! Soldiers have flesh and blood and love, but soldiers exist for the country and the people! Lin looked to the South and was surprised. His face was still full of the soldier ruffian smile, but in his eyes, there was an indescribable emotion. Yes, they are... Soldiers! People in the rear, the army in the front... They must stand in front of the people at any time! Lin looked back to the south, his eyes fell in front, stepped on the accelerator, and the speed climbed to madness From the moment he entered the army, he was just a soldier. From the moment he entered the special combat brigade... He must be prepared for sacrifice! And this sacrifice... Sometimes, not just life! Lin Nan and Fang Xi ran left and returned to their respective troops. What problems are left and what are taken away As if, it left a lot of thinking, but it didn''t seem to take away any ripples. The world will not stop working because someone exists or does not exist It won''t stop living because something didn''t happen or happened. Huakang hospital, VIP ward. The atmosphere of confrontation pervaded the surroundings "Li Yunze," he Ning was so angry that he threw the things he had just packed back to the hospital bed, "I won''t go back to the villa with you." Chapter 1647 Li Yunze was wearing a white coat and leaning against the door with his arms around his chest. In that way, he was lazy and a little evil under the ruffian spirit. He looked at why he would rather be angry. He was neither sad nor sad, just like I didn''t compromise. "You are my wife. You don''t go home with me because you want to be with me in the hospital all the time?" Li Yunze said softly, "if so, I''ll discuss with your Dean Shuya and transfer you to Huakang." "Li Yunze!" He Yining''s face collapsed. "Hey, can''t we talk well?" "I also want to talk well!" Li Yunze shrugged, "but you''re going to separate from me now. How do you want me to talk well?!" "..." he Yining was tired of confrontation and simply sat down on the hospital bed. "First of all, I married you because of one by one. You can''t rely on me because you suddenly find that you have feelings for me... Right?" "No..." Li Yunze answered calmly. "..." he Yining twitched uncontrollably because of Li Yunze''s words. "OK, let''s leave this first..." she took a deep breath. "Going to live in the villa was originally for research. Now the research is over. What are you doing with me?" Li Yunze looked slightly deeper and looked at he Yining''s line of sight with a trace of examination. "Why are you looking at me like that?" Why would you rather wring your eyebrows. Li Yunze has been thinking these days that Yining has forgotten his love for him. What about big brother? In fact, subconsciously, he hoped she would forget about her big brother If her love for him is her last helpless abandonment, then the direct fuse is Yining''s guilt about big brother. Why would you rather see Li Yunze not speak, and his temper finally broke out. He directly ''Teng'' and stood up again "Li Yunze," he Yining said calmly, "yes, brother Yunhao''s affair is a mistake I made unintentionally!" Li Yunze slowly stood up straight and looked at he Yining''s line of sight, which became complicated in an instant He didn''t speak. He just wanted to see what he would say? "But," why did Ning pause, slightly tilt his head, and look at Li Yunze after a touch of guilt under instinctive consciousness on his face, "I spent three years cooperating with you to study brother Yunhao''s research project in the villa." She paused and could not let go of her mistake, although it was unintentional. "This is not enough to repay... But in the end, is it not enough for me to use my life to protect Brother Yun Hao''s research?" He Yining sneered, "is it because I''m not dead, so now you torture me in another way?" Li Yunze frowned. "Then don''t save me?" He Yining sneered, "how nice it is to let me die on the operating table... One life is worth one life!" Li Yunze''s "reasonable" explanation for he Yining, whether it''s the "reasonable" explanation for Yihe and his marriage after forgetting his love for him, or the "reasonable" explanation for big brother''s affairs At the moment, like yanmiao, he can''t refute! He Yining was discharged from the hospital. Finally, instead of returning to the villa after Li Yunze and her marriage, he returned to the house rented by her former family courtyard. Although, it is not "rented" now! One by one, lying on the armrest of the sofa, looking at why Ning is packing his things, she shook her head with a sigh: Mom''s ability to write screenplays by herself, she thinks she won''t be a doctor in the future, and dad can consider letting mom write screenplays... Well, maybe she can become a famous screenwriter. After all, mother can turn unreasonable into "reasonable"! In this way, there should be no bugs in the content?! "One by one..." he Yining shouted. "Huh?" One by one, a little unhappy. He Yining looked back at his daughter, "ask your father out for dinner tonight!" "..." one by one was stunned, then suddenly sat up, "Mom, what are you talking about?" "I said..." he Yining continued his action. "Ask your father out for dinner in the evening!" "Mom, your attitude is a little creepy!" Tucao make complaints about "not even live with dad. Just now Dad will send us back. You will not allow... Why do you have dinner together again?" This painting style changes too fast. Her little heart is really overwhelmed. She is incompetent to accept it! He Yining didn''t think there was any problem, but said calmly: "you''re going back to school in another week. No matter what my relationship with your father is, I can''t deprive you of your rights." She put down the rag, turned and leaned against the table, looked at them one by one and said, "so, no matter what happens between me and your father, I hope you won''t be embarrassed because of our relationship." Her eyes became serious. "Can you understand what I said?" "Of course!" One by one shrugged his small shoulders, "although I hope my mother and father can be together, but if my mother feels very embarrassed, I will not use my thinking to imprison my mother''s life." One by one, he got up and planned to clean up his house. "The teacher taught us to be independent and said... No one is an accessory to anyone. We can''t lose our subjective thoughts because of the wishes of our parents. Naturally, parents can''t lose their freedom under the value of life because of their children." He Yining smiled, "it''s a wise choice for me to throw you abroad!" After all, my father and I can''t eat coke one by one. "After all, I don''t agree to go to the hot pot one by one in the evening. I don''t think I can eat coke one by one!" He Yining smiled and made a ''OK'' gesture with one by one. ¡­¡­ "All the tests are very good. When the last result comes out, if there is no problem, you can go home and rest first..." Qiao Jinnian said with a smile. "Now you''re at ease?" As long as there is no big problem, Yang Yi can go home to recuperate. After all, Zhang Nian is a professional nurse. "Thank you, senior!" Zhang Nian confirmed the test report again and smiled. The last one is not a big project. There should be no problem. "Xiao Nian..." Qiao Jinnian frowned slightly, and his voice was helpless. Although Zhang Nian completely rejected Chu Zixiao, even if she met Jian Mo, she was completely regarded as a familiar stranger However, she did not agree to Qiao Jinnian''s pursuit. "I know your situation better than anyone else," Qiao Jinnian said in a helpless voice. "Whether it''s your aunt or you, I may not be the one you want in your heart, but it''s the one that suits you best!" "Senior, are you sure you know all about me?" Chapter 1648 Zhang Nian asked, looking at Qiao Jinnian seriously. "In fact, what you can see is only what you see now..." she sighed and said with a smile in her mouth, "Fit is not a condition for a lifetime. I can''t let you into my life because you are fit. It''s not only irresponsible to the senior students, but also irresponsible to myself." Zhang Nian smiled and didn''t seem to have much emotion. "I''ll go back and say good news to my mother first..." she nodded slightly, turned and left. Qiao Jinnian stood where he was, looking at Zhang Nian''s back and feeling mixed. "Xiaonian..." Qiao Jinnian suddenly shouted to Zhang Nian, "although it''s not the condition for accompanying a lifetime, isn''t it the condition for the beginning?" His voice was firm, "I can''t say I know all about you, but I can understand, and I''m not afraid to understand..." Zhang Nian didn''t look back, just looked ahead The sun just moved to the window of the corridor. The strong light was so dazzling that people couldn''t open their eyes. That feeling is like you know there is light, but it''s too dazzling. You don''t know whether the light is behind the imprisonment under the abyss or the redemption after hope Zhang Nian flashed a self mocking smile at the corner of his mouth, gently fanned his eyes, looked at the slow opening where he gradually lost focus: "indeed, you can understand when it''s appropriate... After understanding, if it''s not appropriate to separate, it''s appropriate to be together." She astringed her eyes and slowly turned to look at Qiao Jinnian, "but I won''t give the senior this opportunity." Qiao Jinnian suddenly frowned. Although Zhang Nian has been refusing, there has never been such a clear and indifferent refusal. Such refusal made Qiao Jinnian feel as if something was tearing apart "Senior students, keep a good job!" Zhang Nian smiled. "Beautiful things are only suitable for memory, not for demonstration!" Zhang Nian smiled at Qiao Jinnian and said nothing more. He turned and went to Yang Yi''s ward Many things have changed since the night my father designed her and Chu Zixiao! She has no right to pursue anything and no ability to fantasize about anything ¡­¡­ Shen Chu spread a design drawing in front of Jian Mo with a resentful look on her face. "I don''t want to be disliked by your husband, but there''s no way now. The customer''s requirements..." she pointed to one of the design drawings, "it''s your style!" Jian Mo picked up the design drawing, swept it as a whole, and couldn''t help admiring, "Shen Chu, your design drawing is becoming more and more bold and manic..." "It''s necessary. UCL came out anyway." Shen Chu took the water from Aunt Luo, "thank you, aunt Luo." After thanking her, she looked at Jian Mo''s eyes. "The other party said that they chose us because they liked the seamless connection of our two design styles... But in the end, I finished the design drawing alone." "So I found a place for me to do it?" Jane looked at the design again. "No, it''s the customer''s previous idea. It''s close to your design..." "Well, I''ve taken the time to call you these two days." Jane scanned the design again. Shen Chu drank water, "by the way, I accompanied my friend to find Zixiao to deal with a case yesterday. I saw that he was not in good spirits..." As Gu Beichen''s first love, she is asking Gu Beichen''s wife Jian Mo about her first love... Well, it''s a little weird. At the mention of this, Jian Mo sighed deeply, put down the design drawing, and her sight became dignified. "What''s the matter?" Shen Chu wondered. Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu and said bitterly, "people always have to bear the consequences for what they do..." she leaned slowly on the sofa. "When we do a lot of things, we always think we won''t regret it in the future... But the fact is, we will!" Shen Chu frowned and looked at Jian Mo with disgust. "You''ve finished your month, and you''ve become a great philosopher." "What can I do? I have to find something to pass the time by myself..." Jane Mo smiled helplessly. Because Xiao Yan left, she had some big and small problems. The old people said that the disease in the month should be raised in the month. From Gu Beichen to everyone around her, after the birth of the little princess, she had taken care of her so little that she was helpless... But she was also very happy. "Hey, what happened to you and your Lu Da director?" Jane''s heart is full of gossip again. Shen Chu couldn''t stand it. He moved a little away, turned his eyes and said, "what else can I do? Like dog skin plaster, it can''t be torn off when it''s pasted..." "Don''t tear it!" Jane Mo smiled. "If you tear it and it hurts, let it stick. When you turn back, heaven and man will be one!" "..." Shen Chu pulled at the corners of his mouth and said, "ha ha", saying that Jian Mo was becoming more and more incorruptible, which means he was speechless and choked. ¡­¡­ 11. After cleaning up, he took his iPad and dialed Li Yunze for a video call. "Dad, mom said to have dinner together in the evening." One by one looked at the closed bedroom door, "I told you first, you have a psychological preparation." "Yes." Li Yunze''s mobile phone is on the side of the table, busy with something under his hand. "Where is Dad going to eat in the evening?" One by one curious. "At home." Li Yunze answered calmly, "when you were in Spencer, your mother and I would occasionally live in an apartment together." "Tut Tut, you two have done a great job in underground work..." one by one glanced down, "but I don''t think mom will go." "Why?" Li Yunze glanced at one by one in his mobile phone. "According to the current situation of my mother, I don''t think she will give you a chance..." wrinkled her nose one by one, "go home and have dinner together, and make it clear that she has compromised the family''s settings." "If a family goes out to dinner together, it''s not a compromise?" Li Yunze snorted, "not all three of us." "Hee hee, too!" One eye suddenly turned, "Dad, why don''t I help you?" "Good!" Li Yunze didn''t know what clever thoughts his daughter was playing, but whether it was useful or not, he spoiled his daughter''s mind and said, "how are you going to help me?" "I''ll give you one. Even if mom doesn''t want to eat in your apartment..." the little face is full of excited light, "it will give you a chance to come to our side!" Li Yunze stopped his movements, took off his disposable medical gloves, took his mobile phone and sat down in a chair. "Tell me, how are you going to give me this opportunity?" Chapter 1649 One by one, I was nervous and looked at the closed door of the bedroom. Then I whispered to Li Yunze about her plan, "when my mother and I go out, I will secretly hide her key, and then I won''t bring the key..." "Well, then I''ll open the door?" Li Yunze asked along with his daughter''s words. Nodding one by one, "yes, that''s it!" She smiled, her eyes flapping with a smart light, "doesn''t dad also have the key here?!" Li Yunze nodded. "After dinner, my father must send me and my mother back..." one by one said excitedly in a low voice. "Then, we found that we didn''t have the key. Naturally, my father didn''t go far, so we had a chance to come back and open the door." Li Yunze thought it was reasonable. "Then, our family will ask dad to come in and sit down one by one?" "Right!" He raised his eyebrows one by one and blinked with Li Yunze. Li Yunze smiled. Although he didn''t know whether the one-to-one plan could succeed, he suddenly felt a little sour and happy to see his daughter worrying about him and Yining. What if Yining forgets his love for him now? With the support of his daughter and the 20 years of him and Yining, what else can''t be crossed?! After busy, Li Yunze drove to pick up he Yining and 11. Different from the previous helplessness that three people basically couldn''t be in the same box, why should we forget our love for Li Yunze now? Instead, the same box of the whole family has become arbitrary. After Li Yunze got downstairs, he Yining called, "I''m downstairs. You and one by one can come down." "Good!" Why should Ning hang up the phone after answering the voice and shout with an ordinary face, "one by one, your father is coming and gone..." "Coming!" He answered one by one, put down his book and came out. When I came out, I just saw he Yining open his bag and check what to bring. His eyes turned one by one and his small mouth smiled. "Come on, put on your coat..." he Yining put his bag on the shelf, took down the hook and put on your coat one by one. "Mom, I want to change a coat..." I looked at the coat on why Yining''s hand one by one. "I''ve been wearing this one for two days." The little girl likes beauty. Why Ning didn''t think there was anything, so she said, "OK, I''ll get you another one. You change your shoes first." "Yes!" Nod one by one. He Yining turned and went to the bedroom one by one and brought her a new coat. One by one, while wearing shoes, she noticed he Yining. At the moment she saw her mother enter the bedroom, she hurried to take he Yining''s bag, quickly turned out the key from inside and put it on the storage table. She carefully covered it a little, so that when her mother came out and took her bag and left, she couldn''t see the key. When she came back, she wouldn''t find that she took it out on purpose. Well, at least under her deception, my mother can think that her memory is wrong and she really forgot to bring the key. "One by one, how about this one?" He Yining took out a coat in the style of a small pink white cloak and said, "I''m going to buy you clothes..." "Well, that''s it!" Nodding one by one, I subconsciously wanted to say: Grandpa and aunt bought it before, but they didn''t bring it back today. But the words haven''t been exported yet. The little girl turned her eyes and changed her mouth: "OK, after dinner, let''s buy clothes together!" "Well, good!" He Yining didn''t find the careful thinking one by one. When he changed his shoes and got up, he took his bag, opened the door and went downstairs one by one. From beginning to end, she did not find that the key originally in the bag was already on the shelf. "What would you like to eat except hot pot and exciting food?" Li Yunze asked after he Yining got on the bus. "You decide!" It doesn''t matter why you prefer. Anyway, you can''t eat those things you like at the moment. "Then go to Wangjiang tower and have a look at the night scenery and eat Chinese food, so you don''t have to go back to school one by one. You can''t think about it..." Li Yunze said and looked at them one by one from the rearview mirror. One by one, the ghost spirit and he blinked, smiled and answered, "OK!" She paused. "There''s no clothes at all. My mother said we''ll go shopping when we''re finished." Li Yunze understood the meaning of one by one and silently praised his daughter. There is a daughter who is assisted by God. He has more opportunities to get along with Yining, and naturally has a greater chance to win. The family went to dinner happily, and Li Yunze ordered. He Yining looked at the dishes on the table, either what she liked to eat or what she liked to eat one by one. He frowned slightly, why Ning looked at Li Yunze suspiciously... He knew it was normal for him to like to eat one by one. After all, he was his daughter. But how do you know what she likes?! "What''s the matter?" Li Yunze looked at him and asked why he Ning. He handed the poured juice to one by one. "Nothing." He Yining decided not to ask. After asking many questions, Li Yunze thought she was interested in him! A meal is easy to eat. There are one by one connections. In addition, Li Yunze will not be too eager to follow the infiltration policy. After dinner, a family of three went shopping. He Yining and looked at things one by one. Of course, Li Yunze was physically responsible for carrying things. "Isn''t that Li Shaohe and he Yining?" "Yes, I heard they had a daughter years ago... So old?!" "This protection is more exaggerated than Gu Beichen and Jian mo." "Yes..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± There were always some voices of discussion around him. Li Yunze ignored it and he Yining was too lazy to reason. One by one, he was immersed in the joy of eating and shopping together. "Wow, so happy!" After sitting in the car one by one, he sighed, "this is the first time to go shopping with mom and Dad!" "It''s all right. There will be many opportunities in the future!" While Li Yunze was wearing his seat belt, he looked back and raised his eyebrows one by one. His sight fell on he Yining. "Well, it''s normal for parents to appear together when shopping for their daughter. There are indeed many opportunities." He Yining said something without salt. One by one, he looked at Li Yunze, and the father and daughter said... He Yining, who is so cold, is a little difficult to deal with! He Yining was sent downstairs one by one. Li Yunze asked, "I''ll send you up..." and he wanted to unfasten his seat belt. "No, not much." He Yining immediately refused, "it''s late, you go back early..." she motioned to get off one by one. "Bye, Dad..." together, he kissed Li Yunze on his face, his eyes trembled and blinked smartly, and then said with a smile, "good night, Dad!" "Good night, baby!" He Yining looked at his daughter and Li Yunze, who were reluctant to part with each other. He opened the door and got off, and went to the trunk to get something. "Dad," whispered one by one, "don''t drive too fast, in order to come back quickly and ''Save'' me and my mother who can''t get in!" Chapter 1650 Li Yunze looked back at he Yining, who went to the trunk to get something. Because the lid of the trunk was hit, he couldn''t see anything. Li Yunze rubbed 11''s small head and motioned her to get off. One by one, he Yining made a sound. Just as he Yining took out the things, the man also opened the door and got off. Li Yunze reluctantly watched the mother and daughter walk into the building, and looked back at her father one by one... From beginning to end, why would she rather look cold. Well, Li Yunze was very young! "It''s really self inflicted and can''t live..." Li Yunze looked at why Ning''s "indifference" back, sighed secretly, started the car and left. After Li Yunze''s car left the community, he directly found a place to stop and didn''t go! Although he Yining will doubt if he comes back too fast, he just doesn''t want to leave too far When I opened the window, the slightly cold wind came in at night. Li Yunze slowly leaned against the car seat, his sight fell in front, and gradually lost his mind ¡­¡­ One by one, help he Yining hold the shopping bag, slightly raise his head, and watch why Yining turn his eyebrows in the bag. "I remember seeing the key in the bag at that time!" Why Ning''s mouth is murmuring, and her eyebrows are frowning tighter and tighter. "Mom, this is not your first time." One by one, his face was a little broken. "I always think I remember... In fact, I just remember." He Yining looked at one by one and wanted to say something, but finally, he drooped his shoulders weakly, "it''s estimated that I really remember wrong..." One by one, the little face was bitter. "One by one..." "Huh?" "Do you have the key?" Why is it better to hold fantasies. "Mom, when we go out together, you bring the keys..." one by one said, "I have few opportunities to go out by myself. Even if I used to play downstairs, you were home! Besides, you installed the keys for me..." "Didn''t your teacher say you should learn to be independent?" He Yining asked. One by one, I rolled my eyes and felt that after my mother woke up, it was not as easy to deceive as before. "However, when I came back to Los Angeles, I entered this house for the first time today. I didn''t expect to back up my keys!" Answer one by one like a stream, secretly happy in my heart. Fortunately, my father asked this question in advance and was afraid that my mother would ask... She and my father had already discussed the countermeasures. He Yining had no hope at last. He looked at the door that couldn''t be opened and looked a little helpless. "Eh!" One by one, suddenly he said, "Mom, does Dad have a key?" He Yining frowned, "should... No?!" She''s not sure. Because he Yining''s confusion about Li Yunze''s memory and the sweet things that happened between the two people can be said to be automatically avoided in the depths of his heart. When she suddenly asked this question, she wanted to say, ''how could your father have the key here'', but she didn''t know why, and suddenly she was uncertain. "Call dad and ask if you don''t know." One by one, he Yining looked at him without blinking. "I think there are some in dad''s place... Mom, call quickly. Dad should not have gone far." He Yining didn''t move. One by one, he tilted his head curiously, "Mom?" He Yining looked at her daughter''s eyes, frowned and took out her mobile phone. When her eyes were more and more looking forward and expecting some uncontrollable excitement, she dialed a few numbers, put her mobile phone in her ear and said to them one by one: "just open a lock. How can it be so troublesome? Just find someone to unlock..." "..." one by one, he immediately opened his mouth with wide eyes, and looked at he Yining with an unbelievable look on his small face. "Hello, I''m here..." he Yining reported the address to the people inside. "Yes, the key is left in the house. How long can you come here?" His mouth shriveled one by one, and his little face was full of distress. "OK, please hurry up... OK, thank you!" Why rather hung up the phone, looked at his little face, a sad face one by one, slightly frowned, "what''s the matter?" As she spoke, she took the things she held one by one into her hand. "The one who unlocked the lock said that a worker had just opened the lock in Runze Park and could come in about ten minutes." "Oh..." answered one by one. He Yining thought her daughter was tired, gently pinched her little face and said, "soon, huh?!" Nodding one by one, he Yining, who didn''t play cards according to the routine, was silently sad for Li Yunze who was still waiting The mother and daughter are waiting for the lock at the door of the house, while Li Yunze is outside the community, waiting to be called to open the door. Li Yunze raised his wrist and looked at the time. It''s been half an hour since his car stopped here. Why hasn''t he called yet? Thinking, the mobile phone suddenly sent a request for video call. Li Yunze frowned slightly and picked it up. Seeing that it was one by one, he seemed to have guessed something "Dad..." holding the iPad one by one, looking a little distressed, "mom would rather call the person who unlocked the company than you." Li Yunze frowned, "why do I feel a little gloating in your voice?" "Hey, hey, did you hear that?!" One by one grinned, "I just think my mother is suddenly smart..." paused, "well, I think my mother was not smart before. She must have used her IQ to love my father." "So, now your mother doesn''t love me, and IQ goes back?" Li Yunze snorted angrily. One by one smiled more happily, "Dad, I express my deep sympathy for you..." Li Yunze breathed a sigh of relief and was helpless. "Forget it, it seems that everything depends on myself!" "Are you sure you can handle mom after I leave?" Pick eyebrows one by one. "Must!" Li Yunze''s voice was filled with a touch of overbearing arrogance. One by one left his small mouth and expressed some concern about his father. Mainly, the current mother seems to be a little difficult to deal with. ¡­¡­ South Africa. Xiao Mu checked the new batch of ammunition, took out one of the shining pistols and pulled down the bolt, with satisfaction in the bottom of his eyes. "The transformation of these guns is more urgent..." Xiao Mu sighed, put down his gun and looked at the people aside and asked, "I heard that Lao Liu has taken an apprentice recently?" The people around me smiled, "well, it''s called Xiao Liu. It''s less than 14 years old." "Well, I''m not too old..." Xiao Mu said, and the man had gone out. "Say to old six, cultivate well... Keep people for star." "Lord Xiao thinks that Shi Shaoqin will let you take star?" The man frowned. "I don''t think he will make friends!" Chapter 1651 Xiao Mu stopped slowly, looked at the person in front of him who was training, and then looked across the other side. There are some children between the ages of three and fifteen. Either orphans, or the product of domestic violence, or abandoned parents with some problems Some of these children will be selected to form an elite team in all aspects. Ming, can deal with all parties. Dark, can solve the people and things that need to be solved at any time And he also prepared this team for star. "Of course he doesn''t want to make friends." Xiao Mu smiled, a very light smile, as if he were talking about everyday life. It fell into the eyes of people he didn''t know, and even showed kindness, "but there are some things... I really can''t help him." Gu Beichen is hopeless. Now he can only focus on his children. A child who has a high genetic IQ and is carefully raised by Shi Shaoqin of Mo palace He can guarantee that in the future, XK will be a sharp blade in the dark world and a hand in the white world around the neck of others! The man looked at Xiao Mu''s face, smiled and didn''t speak. Xiao Mu frowned slightly, looked at the man and said, "why, you think Gu Beichen has slipped away under my hand. Shi Shaoqin will only be cheated by Gu Beichen, so I can''t get star, right?!" "Master Xiao, I didn''t say..." the man said quickly, with a solemn look on his face. "I firmly believe you can get star." "Hum!" Xiao Mu hummed softly and went on with his hands on his back. The man looked at Xiao Mu''s figure, smiled and followed He was worried that Shi Shaoqin would not let people go, but he really didn''t think that Lord Xiao couldn''t get people. Lord Xiao likes Gu Beichen. He thinks that a plain person can stimulate such potential after three months in the Mo palace. With good practice and IQ, he must be suitable for XK. But I can''t stand that others won''t come, and the God Emperor Group can only rely on Gu Beichen. Lord Xiao is more or less hesitant. Now star doesn''t have this hesitation. The most important thing is that this child is Gu Beichen''s child. It''s also natural that "the father owes the son". Besides, now that master Xiao has grasped Shi Shaoqin''s "lifeline", plus as long as XK has to be, so far, there is really nothing else ¡­¡­ Mo palace. Shi Shaoqin sat in a chair on one side and watched Star sitting on the beach. He carefully dressed the washed shrimp one by one with a bamboo sign. Qingqing stood aside and watched Star wear it seriously. Several times, her heart was raised by the little guy''s actions. Qingqing''s heart trembled when star''s signature slipped off and almost poked her small face again. She breathed out secretly, frowned and looked at Shi Shaoqin She doesn''t understand. Obviously, no one is as spoiled as Qin Shao pet star, but how can he look at Star wearing shrimp?! It seems that the danger is not star "Our over protection will only make star lose his sense of crisis." Shi Shaoqin didn''t even look at Qingqing, but he had guessed what she was thinking at the moment. He looked at Star calmly and said, "he will pay attention to himself only if he is injured and aware of the danger." Qingqing shrunk the corner of her mouth and looked at star again. I saw that the little guy was still wearing it very seriously and looked very focused Qin Shao didn''t say, and she didn''t pay attention because she was worried. But think about it, it seems that when the first sign was going to poke star, he looked at Qin Shao in fear. Qin Shao''s eyes encouraged, and the little guy began to wear happily again. However, as a child, he still lacked strength. Several times, the sign and shrimp slipped off and almost stabbed himself. But later, star knew how to hide. Qingqing sighed and looked at Shi Shaoqin again. She felt that no one in the world could love star more than him After all, if they were parents, they would never be willing to guide star like this. Natural doting on children is likely to cause children to be unable to solve difficulties in the future Carney followed Shi juechi slowly from a distance. The two arrived. Star just strung all the shrimp. "Eat all the stones!" Star happily held up the shrimp he had last dressed. His eyes narrowed with a smile and looked at everyone. "OK." Shi Shaoqin answered and knew that star''s "eat all" didn''t mean to let him eat all by himself, but everyone ate. "Star, Qingqing will take you to wash your hands." Qingqing has eyes to see her son come forward. "OK..." star happily put the shrimp back into the basin, got up and left with Qingqing. Shi Jue Chi sat down beside Shi Shaoqin at the right time, "there''s news." Shi Shaoqin looked at him and didn''t speak. "XK has found the apprentice of the ghost doctor." Shi juechi slowly leaned back on the chair and his vision fell on the sunflower field swinging with the wind in front. "The ability of ghost doctor has always been a legend for us... However, people who XK can believe do have something extraordinary." Shi Shaoqin took back his sight and fell on the sunflower field. "It''s always necessary to cure star first." He wants star to have a memory. No matter good or bad, it should belong to his life Shi juechi waited for a while. Seeing that Shi Shaoqin didn''t make any further remarks, he frowned slightly and looked at him, "Shaoqin?" "On the premise that Beichen didn''t go, Mr. Xiao can''t wait to slowly find out the people suitable for XK. I''m afraid he won''t let go of staring at star." Shi Shaoqin''s gorgeous face showed a touch of rare helplessness, "if star doesn''t want to go, I want to fight for him... If he is willing to go, it''s his life, and I won''t stop it." "But..." Shi Jue Chi stopped talking. "But no." Shi Shaoqin said slowly, "I don''t want to interfere too much in star''s life." He interfered in star''s biggest "life" and selfishly left him with him. Although, in many aspects, he also has some considerations But it''s just this thing, the rest... He wants star to decide his own life. He can''t accompany star all his life, and Mo palace is not the direction star should develop. XK''s words are about people. Maybe it''s the stage of star''s life. "Stone..." Star came out after washing his hands. He shouted and ran over with a small step on his mat. His small body twisted because his steps were on the beach. Shi Shaoqin''s good-looking mouth slightly aroused a soft smile, looked at the figure of star running, and slowly said, "even if he is so small, he will refresh his memory every day... However, star has natural control over his own affairs." He looked back at Shi juechi. "Star is very similar to Beichen... It also has the tenacity of Jianmo!" He looked at star again, "no matter where star is in the future, I believe... As long as he wants, everything in the world is just his!" Chapter 1652 Shi Shaoqin''s words were full of arrogance. Shi juechi didn''t know if star would become the person Shi Shaoqin said, but suddenly... He was looking forward to it. Thinking, he also looked at star and couldn''t help but gradually overflow a soft smile. If such a child has such ability in the future, it is really something worth looking forward to Just, I don''t know if he can live to see star''s achievements like that?! "Stone, make a fire." Star ran to Shi Shaoqin, said with a small hand and took his big palm. After Shi Shaoqin got up and gave a spoiled "OK", he was pulled by star to make a fire and ready to roast shrimp. Kani looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back and sighed softly, "in fact, I think star can go to XK and take care of Mo palace in the future." Shi Jue Chi looked sideways at Carney and frowned slightly. "XK''s hands are both black and white. It doesn''t matter if there are multiple ink palaces, does it?" Carney shrugged. Shi juechi didn''t speak, but took back her sight and fell on the big and small figure that left. Gradually... Her sight became complicated. ¡­¡­ Once the pace of spring in Los Angeles approaches, it seems that everything in the world is recovering, which makes people feel the smell of warm flowers in spring when they are busy. At Los Angeles International Airport, after checking in the salute with Jin shaosi one by one, they went to Li Yunze and he Yining. Jin shaosi originally went to Germany to deal with the company''s affairs two days later, but he raised the time one by one. He Yining was held one by one, and some were reluctant to part with him. "Mom, you won''t be separated from your father, will you?" One by one, the voice was choking under forbearance. Why Ning was slightly stunned, hugged one by one, stroked her back and said, "well, not for the time being." "Temporarily..." one by one, he Yining''s neck was loosened with dissatisfaction, and he said with worry on his small face, "it''s better for mom to be ''temporary'' for a long time." Why would you rather smile and look at your daughter, hold one by one''s face with both hands and gently rub it, "you said yourself, no one is anyone''s accessory. Don''t ''kidnap'' your mother... Huh?" One by one, he drooped his shoulders, shrunk his little mouth, and looked at his father who was talking to Uncle Si. His eyes were full of helplessness. Dad, I can only help you here. Next, it depends on your own efforts. There are two children, mother and daughter. One is calm and the other is careful Over there, Jin shaosi and Li Yunze, two men destined to be wrong because of he Yining, have a dignified face. "Gu Beichen and I have the same idea," Jin shaosi said indifferently. "Yining has been chasing you for so long. It''s unreasonable for us to help you and Yining. She once loved you... If you want, you can only rely on yourself." "I didn''t think you would help me give Yining what to say?" Li Yunze hissed coldly, "I''m a woman, I''ll chase myself..." he said, and he paused, "as long as you don''t get involved." "Do you think I''ll say nothing if I want to get involved?" Jin shaosi sneered. Li Yunze didn''t refute. He was grateful that Jin shaosi didn''t say anything now. "You and Fang Xiran..." Li Yunze pondered a little and asked, "you have no possibility of development?" Jin shaosi didn''t answer immediately. Li Yunze naturally wouldn''t ask, "for what doesn''t belong to you, you lose what belongs to you... For you who have been ups and downs in the Jin family for so many years, you''d better weigh it up!" He didn''t continue to talk, but turned and went to why Ning''s side. One by one, I was bored with my parents for a while before I passed the pass with Jin shaosi After all, she was still a child. Although she learned to be independent after three years of German life, she still couldn''t control herself when she really wanted to leave. Step by step and look back at the same time, looking at the distance between my parents and myself getting farther and farther, my nose was still sour and my eyes were red all of a sudden. He Yining saw his daughter''s expression from a distance, and his heart was suddenly touched, and his eyes turned red, and his face was completely reluctant to give up. Li Yunze stretched out his hand and grabbed her shoulder I don''t know whether it''s instinct or why I''d rather be immersed in the sadness of parting with my daughter at the moment and didn''t break free! Looking at such parents one by one, his voice was a little choked and said, "Alas, seeing that my mother doesn''t refuse my father, I want to come and leave again every day..." "..." Jin shaosi frowned slightly and looked back at the two people who were "hugging". One by one, why Ning''s heart seems to be empty. Suddenly! Why Ning suddenly frowned and looked coldly at Li Yunze, "let go." "Don''t let go..." "Really?" Why Ning''s mouth suddenly filled with a faint smile. Li Yunze raised his eyebrows and looked like "I won''t let go, what can you do to me". He also took he Yining''s hand and increased his strength. He Yining converged his sight and sneered at the corners of his mouth A scream of "ow" suddenly exploded around, causing people passing by to look at the sound Li Yunze''s arm around he Yining had turned into a waist guard. He looked at he Yining in pain and said, "he Yining, you study medicine to save people, not to find a vulnerable position on people..." "Oh," said he Ning, with an indifferent face and a shallow sarcasm in his voice, "your hand is for surgery, not for hugging a woman!" "..." Li Yunze''s sideburns moved slightly, but he Yining loved and hated him, "and became not cute at all." "I''m not cute. What does it have to do with you?" Why rather hummed, "I''m cute, and I don''t want to show it in front of you." Then she turned and walked outside the airport Li Yunze looked at why Ning disliked her back, thought of his "dislike" for her before, and sighed, "forget it, taste your own fault!" After finding a step for himself, Li Yunze rubbed his waist and followed why Ning out of the airport "The parking lot is over there..." Li Yunze hurriedly reminded him that he Yining was in the wrong direction. "You go by yourself. I''ll take the bus. It''s just near the hospital." Why don''t you turn your head back and say that your footsteps have always had a certain frequency. "..." Li Yunze gritted his teeth, grabbed he Yining''s wrist and said with a sneer, "shit, he Yining, you really think you''re allowed to pinch flat and round it, don''t you?!" "Hey, what are you doing?" He Yining looked at the line of sight around him, and was so angry that he gnashed his teeth. "Did you just have enough pain?" "Really!" Li Yunze sneered, "just say, do you want to take the bus or go back to the city with me." "Sit big... Ah!" He Yining''s words haven''t finished yet. Suddenly a scream came Chapter 1653 Li Yunze picked her up and walked to the parking lot without saying a word If he Yining''s physical condition is not taken into account, Li Yunze actually wants to carry it directly. There was a sound of smiling and whistling around. He Yining was ashamed and embarrassed, "Li Yunze." she bit her teeth and squeezed out the gap between her teeth word by word, "put me down quickly..." Li Yunze ignored her! He Yining turned his eyes and said, "you put me down. I won''t take the bus. I''ll go back to the city with you." "It''s late!" Li Yunze said, looking down at he Yining and saying with a rogue look, "I suddenly feel very comfortable holding you like this, so... You also enjoy it!" "You''re comfortable, I''m not comfortable..." why would you rather struggle? Unfortunately, it''s useless. She said angrily, "Li Yunze, you put me down... In public, you don''t feel ashamed and I feel embarrassed!" "I give you a chance to choose. It''s your own choice. You have to bear the consequences of your choice." Li Yunze let him struggle. Anyway, it''s of no use to him. He went on, causing people nearby to look at him one after another. Some are curious, some are confused, and some are watching good plays Why is Ning so angry that she is dying, "Li Yunze, please put me down, I feel dizzy and want to vomit..." she suddenly closed her eyes because of the direct sunlight. "It''s all right. You vomit on me, and I don''t dislike you." Li Yunze looked indifferent. He suddenly thought of himself and he Yining in the past. Now the dislike and scoundrel are completely transferred So ah, the world must be round. Sooner or later, you should bear it. Don''t expect to escape! "Also, you just keep moving," Li Yunze said with a bad smile. "Look at the people around here..." Why should I subconsciously look around? Sure enough, many people pay attention to them. "There is no shortage of media here in the airport..." Li Yunze added fuel to the fire. "After all, there are so many people who want to dig news." He smiled. "Oh, it''s estimated that someone will also record some small videos and put them on the Internet. It''s uncertain that we will become online celebrities when we turn back." He Yining''s face collapsed, "Li Yunze, you did it on purpose!" "I didn''t mean to..." Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "You have to face me. Isn''t it to attract my attention?" "The devil wants to attract your attention. Please put me down..." why would you rather be so angry that your teeth itch, but you can only compromise, "Li Yunze, I really don''t want to take the bus, you put me down!" "It''s coming soon." Li Yunze said and had stepped in the direction of the car. He Yining looked at the flashing entrance of the parking lot and gave up "Li Yunze, you are cruel!" Why rather ''ha ha'' sneered, "I''ve really seen your temperament, which makes me look at you with new eyes." "Well, each other!" Li Yunze didn''t get angry and didn''t have too many mood swings. After he opened the door and put he Yining into the co pilot, he smiled at her and raised his eyebrows. Under her gnashing eyes, he pulled her seat belt and fastened it "Yining," Li Yunze didn''t get up immediately. He just supported the seat back with one hand and the workbench with the other. His eyes were hot under the glue, and he said faintly, "as for me, I have a marriage certificate with you anyway. Now I especially care about you. If you are smart, you also care about me, so we will love each other all our lives..." "Ha ha!" Why should I turn my eyes with a sneer, "what if I don''t want you?" "Oh, that''s a little tangled." Li Yunze frowned slightly, "because you will see my more unknown side." "..." he Yining was out of control and pulled at the corners of his mouth. When he Ning closed the door, he Ning was staring at the woman with his mouth open and his mouth closed in front of her. Well, the situation now... Is quite interesting. Li Yunze drove all the way to the city. Why would he rather be angry and don''t speak? He looked at the passing scenery outside the car and gradually lost his mind "Li Yunze..." "Huh?" Li Yunze looked sideways at why he Ning. He Yining took back his sight and looked at Li Yunze. "If it''s a little bigger one by one, let''s divorce?" "Oh..." Li Yunze answered, and then slowly opened his mouth, "you dream!" "..." why did Ning show his teeth, gasping for breath, and his chest followed one after another. Her lips kept moving, and she had an impulse to strangle Li Yunze... Of course, she just thought about it. He Yining angrily took back his sight and deviated from his body. A child hummed angrily and stopped talking Li Yunze glanced at her, but the corners of his mouth overflowed with a smile. Yining is just a portrayal of him in the past. Looking at him now, he has an impulse to laugh. Because the car stopped talking, it was filled with a strange ambiguous atmosphere, a trace of sweetness under anger and a sense of happiness. At the moment, he Yining never thought that Li Yunze was really a prophecy Small videos and photos of her being held by Li Yunze to the parking lot... Spread wildly on the Internet. We all envy Li Yunze and why he loves. There are so many people who make complaints about themselves that they are invincible. Anyway, if someone love it, someone will make complaints about it. Chen Yu looked at the news funny and wondered whether to add a fire Just in time, there was a knock at the door. "Come in." Chen Ying answered, but his sight was still on the computer screen. Li Jinxi came in and saw him smiling at the computer. He frowned slightly and walked forward, "what are you looking at?" Chen Yu listened to the voice and looked, "how did you come here?" Then he motioned Li Jinxi to his side and played the small video again, "look at this barbaric." Li Jinxi looked at it again and smiled. "Add fire..." she raised her eyebrows. "Give Yining a label first, don''t let others think about it." "Yes." Chen Ying answered, took an inside phone and explained to the Secretary, "release the news of Li Yunze and he Yining." "OK, Mr. Chen!" Chen hung up the inside line and got up, "what do you want to eat later?" "What would you like to eat?" Li Jinxi asked. "Ask me?" Hearing this, Chen Xuan put her arms around Li Jinxi''s waist and turned her slightly against the desk. The man also pressed her over and slowly opened his mouth in an ambiguous attitude, "I want to... Eat you!" Chapter 1654 Before long, they were immersed in the sadness between he Yining and Li Yunze Then, before and after the new year, when major entertainment is busy, the two people are even more connected. They can only meet for dinner every day, and then there are too many things to deal with. Actually... There is no chance to "be together". It''s also a quick decision to satisfy each other''s appetites occasionally. It''s not fun at all. Li Jinxi looked at the flame at the bottom of Chen Yu''s eyes, smiled and said, "President Chen, are you going to be in the office?" "Do you prefer a desk or a carpet?" Chen Yu also smiled. "Do you like semi hanging style... Or rolling style?" More and more ambiguous words, with the depression and charm under flirtation, stirred Li Jinxi''s heart and missed a beat. "Hang up first and then roll around... HMM..." Li Jinxi''s words just fell, and his lips had been sealed by Chen Yu. Sure enough, they hung half on their desks, then went to the carpet and rolled around It was a fierce battle, from the day when the sky was still bright to the dawn of the lights. It can be described as incisively and vividly! Finally, they took a bath in the bathroom in the lounge Who knows, when one gets angry, there is another paragraph of water dance. Chen Yu is a person who knows how to enjoy. With his matrilineal background, he has lived a noble life since childhood. Even the bathroom, which is only used occasionally in the office, has first-class facilities. The Jacuzzi, which can accommodate two people, adds infinite fun to the battle between two people at the moment "No, I can''t fight anymore..." Li Jinxi finally collapsed by the bathtub. "You''re dying!" Chen Xuan hugged Li Jinxi from behind, rubbed her lips behind her ears, and said in a dark voice after love: "look, you haven''t eaten yet, come here first today..." he kissed a tattoo on butterfly valley behind her, "go home after eating, and then serve you well..." "Do you serve me or do I satisfy you?" Li Jinxi didn''t listen to Chen Yu''s deception. He rolled his eyes obliquely, turned and leaned against the bathtub, put his white arm around his neck and said, "Chen Yu, thank you for never giving up on me." Chen Yu''s heart was stirred up by Li Jinxi fiercely, attached to her, kissed her, and said in a low voice, "you are my life, I am the rest of your life... How can you give up?" The beautiful love words made Li Jinxi smile The moment they looked up, there was no dust in their hearts. After Chen worked and washed the breath of love for himself and Li Jinxi, they changed their clothes and went out of the lounge. Just out, both of them were stunned. They looked at Li Yunze, who was sitting in the office chair with his long legs on the desk wantonly, and were stunned one after another. "It''s not easy to wait for you." Li Yunze''s voice was a little strange. Li Jinxi rolled his eyes, and Chen Yu asked directly and jokingly, "you holding your marriage certificate is actually similar to a single dog. Listen here... You''re not afraid to vent?" "..." Li Yunze''s face became dark. Li Jinxi laughed. She knew Chen Yu''s mouth poison. "Come on, what''s up?" Seeing Li Yunze''s ugly face, Chen Yu didn''t sprinkle salt on his heart. He just went to the wine cabinet and took out red wine and goblets. "You made all the news on the Internet, didn''t you?" Li Yunze''s face was dark and asked, "it''s amazing that you can play so many tricks on an airport stem... My brother-in-law!" "Yes!" Chen Yu didn''t feel guilty at all. Instead, he readily accepted, "what do I do? Media..." he handed Li Yunze a glass of red wine. "What''s the most powerful thing in the media? While making something out of nothing, he told the fictional story as true." "Ha ha..." Li Yunze sneered, "so, why should I pursue Ning for a century and fail to capture the beauty''s heart? Now I can only use Qiang?" Chen Yu smiled, "didn''t I help you?" "...." Li Yunze was speechless again. "I don''t ask you to help me, but can you not help me?" He was a little collapsed. "He Yining saw the report and believed more that he didn''t like me. From beginning to end, it was my embarrassment. I loved it for a while and didn''t love it for a while... Shit, if you don''t help, you''ll make trouble!" Li Jinxi was stunned and then took out his mobile phone to call out the report After reading it, he couldn''t help laughing. Looking at Li Yunze''s blacker and blacker face, he laughed and burst into tears. "Chen Yu, I''m sure..." Li Jinxi stopped laughing and looked at Chen Yu. "Your report must have been premeditated." "Well, it was written two days ago." Chen Yu didn''t deny it, "but today I had an opportunity to release it..." Li Yunze looked at the couple who built their happiness on his pain, but he felt speechless and choking. Is Li Jinxi really twins with him? Why is there such a big difference?! Chen Yu took a sip of red wine, leaned on his desk, looked at Li Yunze with a smile and said, "in fact, I''m really helping you!" "Ha ha!" Li Yunze sneered, "I believe you, evil!" Chen Xuan raised her eyebrows, looked at Li Jinxi, and couldn''t help laughing, "one thing may be false at first... But when you hear more, it will come true." He looked at Li Yunze, "so that''s why there is the origin of the word ''people''s words are terrible..." Even if why Yining can''t feel li Yunze''s love, when everyone around her is discussing why Li Yunze loves Yining, her state of mind must be different. ¡­¡­ Yan Miao nestled on the sofa of he Yining''s home and couldn''t help laughing at the reports and comments. "No, I don''t think I''ve ever been so happy..." yanmiao laughed so much that his stomach hurt. He looked at he Yining and asked, "Yining, don''t you have any expression?" "What do you want to say?" He Yining was still angry that Li Yunze held him to the parking lot at the airport, "really, no matter whether the report is true or not, but I found that Li Yunze is so awkward?" Yan Miao held back his smile and nodded, "yes, yes!" "You said... He really liked me since he was a child?" He Yining has unbelievable eyes, "I''ve been unlucky for eight generations?" Yanmiao burst out laughing again. She wanted to know if Li Yunze thought the same way before "Yan Yan, I suddenly thought!" Why Ning sat cross legged on the sofa with a serious face, "you said, I slept with him when I was drunk last time, and then had one by one, and because I married him one by one... It won''t be Li Yunze''s conspiracy from beginning to end?" Chapter 1655 He Yining''s words were serious, and there was no doubt in his eyes. In that case, we should dislike as much as we dislike. Yanmiao was stunned at first. Then he understood what he Yining meant. "Ha ha ha ha" laughed, "Emma, I really can''t... Yining, the painting style of you and Li Yunze, I can really laugh all my life!" He Yining looked at yanmiao''s appearance, some drooped his shoulders, put his arms on the sofa, held his hands, gently curled his hands against his cheeks, and his eyes fell on the TV After a while, she sighed deeply, "seriously, I don''t know why, I always think there is something strange between Li Yunze and me!" Yan Miao stopped laughing, "what''s strange?" She asked deliberately. He Yining thought for a long time, and then slowly opened his mouth when his eyes were a little distracted: "I clearly don''t like him, and even I''m a little disgusted with his behavior... I don''t know why, I feel like seeing him every time." Yan Miao looked at he Yining, thought about it, and asked, "Yining, do you really have no feeling for Li Yunze?" Sometimes, she wondered if Yining chose to forget because she loved and hurt too much? However, if you really want to forget, isn''t it better to directly forget Li Yunze?! "Your question..." why would you rather turn your eyes? "Don''t you and Zihan know what I think of Li Yunze?" "Ha ha!" Yanmiao lay back on the sofa, looked at the roof and said slowly, "yes... Zihan and I know what you think of Li Yunze best." You love him so much that you have no character. You love him so much that you would rather bear it yourself, even get emotional illness... Than leave. You love him Love, because you can''t bear the damage to him, and choose to forget... You used to love him so much. Yan Miao''s smile of reading the report still remained at the corners of his mouth, but his eyes were gradually stained with sadness. At this moment, she suddenly didn''t know whether it was because of herself or Yining Love is sweet, but also sour. Some people can be sweet to old, some people can be bitter and sweet However, some people may not be able to taste it all their life. Naturally, some people, only in time for bitterness, have drawn an end to love. ¡­¡­ Devil "s kiss in the noisy, showing the activity of crazy cells. Screams, hot intimate dance, crazy hook up Never, there is no lack of stimulation here, but there will be no major events. This dark night bar full of black style seems to be a special existence wherever it is. "Ah Shen, if I were you, I would go back and seize power..." a man whose shirt sleeve had been rolled up to his elbow and whose collar button had been unfastened hissed, "so big Huo family, why do you let that illegitimate son dominate, but you genuine crown prince have been exiled?" Huo Qishen glanced sideways at the man who spoke. He didn''t speak. He just covered the coaster on the cup and knocked it gently with the cup Suddenly, the liquor turned into bubbles. He took off the coaster, picked up the cup and drank it in one gulp. The shirt man looked at Huo Qishen. A deep smile crossed the bottom of his eyes and slowly approached him, "Hey, do you want to do something big?" Huo Qishen looked at him again and still didn''t speak. The shirt man looked left and right. Xu was excited and Xu was nervous. His Adam''s apple rolled down. After looking left and right, he slowly approached Huo Qishen and motioned Huo Qishen''s eyes were slightly drunk and looked down indifferently... He saw a small plastic bag in the shirt man''s hand. There were white things like pills in it. "This thing not only makes you feel so high, but also can ignite the blood in your body." The shirt man raised his eyebrows. "How about trying?" Huo Qishen sneered coldly, grabbed the shirt man''s head, and the man bullied him close. "When I play this, you don''t know where it is!" He said, pulled open his shirt, looked back coldly, and pushed the cup to the bartender, "add a degree." The bartender raised his eyebrows, looked across the shirt man and turned around. He took a higher concentration of wine and poured a cup for Huo Qishen. "Ah Shen, you really don''t think about it?" The shirt man obviously doesn''t give up. Huo Qishen glanced sideways at him, but only one eye. The shirt man shivered coldly. "Although I don''t like Huo Lianchen," Huo Qishen''s voice was cold under the noise, "you can''t be an outsider to talk about my Huo family, do you understand?" Huoqi hissed coldly. When the shirt man was forced by his momentum, he took back his sight, drank up the bartender who had just handed it over, paid the money, got up and left. All the actions are done at one go without any pause. Out of devil "s kiss, the door is closed, and the noise inside is instantly blocked from the outside... What is left is only the faint heavy metal music, as if it were just the residual sound in my mind. A cool wind blew, and Huo Qishen shook his head faintly. His sight was blurred under drunkenness. He looked around and walked in a random direction Just after passing a shopping mall, he suddenly smiled when he saw the billboard above. It''s just that the smile is full of complex emotions. "Huo family..." Huo Qishen said, hissed slightly, took back his sight and continued to move forward. Suddenly, Huo Qishen stopped. He looked at yanmiao, who had just come out of the community, and instantly restrained the low breath just along the way and changed into a casual pair. "I said yanmiao," Huo Qishen felt strange, "why the fuck am I so destined for you?" He smiled sideways and then looked at Yan Miao, who despised him, "have a drink and find a way to walk, you can meet you." "I beg you, don''t touch me!" Yan Miao said with a cold hum and went to the roadside to take a taxi. Huo Qishen walked over and casually put his arm on yanmiao''s shoulder. Yanmiao pulled him away and he caught up again. "Huo Qishen, get away from me..." yanmiao warned. "Look at me. After drinking so much, I can''t drive a car, and I don''t know the way..." Huo Qishen began to play tricks. "In the middle of the night, if I accidentally fall into the ditch and sleep all night, I have to go to the hospital to find you tomorrow... You''re more upset. Why don''t you take a car to take me back now?" "..." Yan Miao smiled and was really angry. She has seen shameless, and she can show shameless so incisively and vividly. Absolutely, she has only seen one Huo Qishen. "Why, let you have a chance to send me back, and then you can fantasize about me..." Huo Qishen suddenly raised his eyebrow and said, "are you excited and speechless?" Chapter 1656 Yanmiao suddenly "cluttered" because of Huo Qishen''s words. Her face was a little strange. Fortunately, Huo Qishen was a little drunk at the moment and didn''t care "Oh, yanmiao, just say... Do you like me?" Huo Qishen hugged yanmiao''s hand tightly, which was a bit of a joke. Yanmiao doesn''t know whether Huo Qishen knows she likes him or not. However, when he said it like this, he felt a little angry. "I like you?" Yan Miao looked at Huo Qi and hummed coldly, "do you think I would like someone who is either injured or on the way to drink all day? Or do you think I would like someone who is either drinking or on the way to drink?" "I don''t drink to give women a chance!" Huo Qishen didn''t care about yanmiao''s dislike at all. He said with a smile, "besides, I''m injured. Isn''t that a chance for you?" "......." yanmiao sneered, "I still want to thank you for your words!" "No need to thank you..." Huo Qishen suddenly put his face on yanmiao''s shoulder. "As long as you don''t abandon me now." Xu was completely drunk, and Huo Qishen''s voice showed a sense of loneliness. Yanmiao originally wanted to push him away, but when he said "don''t abandon me", the hand she wanted to push away was frozen in the air, and there was no way to push him away. At the right time, a taxi just came and yanmiao hurriedly stopped After getting on the bus, he reported the address of Huo Qishen''s apartment. Yanmiao looked at the person who was already staring at him and was going to sleep, and mocked himself. She''s really looking for herself. It was not easy to get Huo Qishen, who was in a semi coma, home and put himself on the sofa. Yanmiao was the same as collapse. She can know the address and password lock of Huo Qishen''s house. It''s a nightmare in her life. Whether it''s found in the hospital or halfway, she really doesn''t understand. What''s the evil relationship between her and Huo Qishen?! Yanmiao looked at Huo Qishen angrily and got up to leave However, when the talent moved, he was suddenly pulled by Huo Qishen, and then made an effort... Yanmiao fell down on the sofa because of inertia. Huo Qishen turned over and pressed her under her body. When her face was buried in the middle of her neck... Her hands began to drift away wantonly. Yanmiao''s heart beat as if to break out of his chest. Just when Huo Qishen''s hand wanted to unbutton yanmiao''s jeans, yanmiao suddenly came back and pressed his hand Huo Qi raised his eyes and looked at yanmiao with deep eyes. Maybe it was because he was drunk. At the moment, his eyes were almost bewitching people to the extreme of charm. They didn''t speak, so they were deadlocked under the eyes. I don''t know how long it took until the air gradually condensed. Yanmiao slowly opened his mouth: "Huo Qishen, I''m not Fang Xiran. You have to be responsible for the impulse after getting drunk, or is it just a night for each other to grow up?" "What do you want?" Huo Qi smiled deeply and was evil. Yanmiao tilted his head and sneered, but his eyes were full of self mockery. When she looked back at Huo Qishen, she had no feelings just provoked by him, but only ridiculed under indifference. "What do I want?" Yan Miao sneered and pushed Huo Qishen away. The sound of "Dong" came, and Huo Qishen rolled to the ground. Yanmiao got up and looked down at Huo Qishen lying on the ground. He was too lazy to get up and said, "even if I lack men, I don''t need to find a drunk man to play..." When the words fell, she looked back indifferently, raised her step and wanted to leave. Huo Qishen suddenly sat up, opened his mouth and just wanted to shout yanmiao However, the sound just came out of the throat and swallowed it back. With a bang, the door was thrown open. Such a large apartment became quiet in an instant. Huo Qishen didn''t move, but kept looking at the direction of the door He didn''t get so drunk. It''s not easy for him to get drunk after sleeping in the wine pool for so many years. Just seeing yanmiao like that, he inexplicably wanted to flirt. When he came back, he had the smell of greed on her At that time, he borrowed wine to do something. He admitted that his behavior was a little scum! But he was just flirting with a bad heart. He didn''t think he really wanted to further develop with yanmiao in the end?! Huo Qishen sneered at himself, took back his eyes, lowered his eyes, leaned over and leaned against the sofa. "Yan Miao, Yan Miao..." Huo Qishen looked at the front and was a little confused. "Do you really like me?" Alas, how can you play like this?! Huo Qishen sighed and closed his eyes. ¡­¡­ The news of Li Yunze and he Yining continued to ferment. Chen Yu didn''t stop because of Li Yunze''s anger and warning, and even increased the guidance of public opinion. Finally, Gu Beichen thought it was very good. He even let the entertainment media department under the emperor do a lot of work. "Dr. he," said Dr. Liu, smiling at the report, "before, people were still guessing whether you like Li Shaoxian first or Li Shaoxian like you... So this is the truth!" He Yining looked at Dr. Liu helplessly and was unable to explain anything. The news lasted for more than half a month. Unexpectedly, everyone was still happy with the discussion. She was also very helpless! When Zhang Xinya sent the medical guidance materials, she just heard that Dr. Liu was gossiping, and she also raised her eyebrow, "yes, we didn''t believe it when the news came out. Now even the media under the emperor say so..." People in Los Angeles don''t know that Gu Beichen and Li Yunze are friends who have lived their lives. They wear a pair of trousers from childhood to adulthood. The emperor has reported like this. It must be nine times out of ten. "Ha ha..." why would you rather pull the corners of your mouth and get up, "you discuss it slowly. I went to the clinic." At the same time, she has turned and walked outside the office Leaving three doctors and a nurse in the office, they were still talking happily there. Why did Ning just get out of the building of the inpatient department and call Li Yunze with his mobile phone. Li Yunze was having a morning meeting. Seeing why Yining called, he immediately suspended the meeting. He was very irresponsible and happily took his mobile phone out of the meeting room He Yining took the initiative to call him. This is the first time after waking up! Li Yunze happily picked it up, "Yining?" "Li Yunze!" Why did the roaring voice come at the same time. Li Yunze took a puff from the corner of his mouth and felt that he was happy and sad. "What''s the matter? The fire in the morning is so big that I didn''t annoy you!" "Hehe, didn''t you annoy me?" He Yining stopped and said gnashing his teeth, "I''ll give you a morning. I don''t want to see the news about me and you." Chapter 1657 "Then I have no ability." Li Yunze said with an eyebrow. Because of the news, I''d rather call him! Looking back, there may be better development "No?" Why Ning smiled, the laughter was a little penetrating, "a Li Jinxi man''s company, that is, your brother-in-law... One is under your brother Gu Beichen company. You tell me that you have no ability?" "Everyone is responsible for their own profits and losses. They always have to give others a bite to eat." Li Yunze looked silly. "Then you just don''t solve it, do you?" He Yining''s voice has been full of warning. "If you cook for me tonight, I''ll solve it!" Li Yunze offered, "the location must be in your place or my apartment... Of course, you can go to the villa if you want!" "..." why would you rather bite your teeth? "Li Yunze, what do you want?" "Just one meal!" Li Yunze said, "anyway, although I have a low attitude towards such gossip, I still like it... If you want me to help, you always have to give me some benefits, right?" Why would you rather not speak. Li Yunze smiled. "Anyway, look for yourself... If you want this news to disappear, choose you to cook for me." Why should I rather close my eyes and open them again with a fake smile in my mouth, "ha ha, Li Yunze... I''ve really seen your ability to constantly refresh the rogue." "Yes." Li Yunze won happily and did not refute. He Yining took a deep breath for several times and finally said, "OK!" She walked up to the clinic building. "When you go to my place for dinner, finish the news first." "No, I''ll have to eat first." Li Yunze said unambiguously, "I promise that as long as you fulfill your promise, this news will disappear before midnight." "Can I trust you?" Why rather cold hissed. "You can only trust me now..." "..." he Yining raised his hand and stroked his forehead. He felt that it was meaningless for him and Li Yunze to continue talking like this, "OK, it''s so decided." Then, at the moment she stepped on the stairs of the outpatient building, regardless of whether Li Yunze answered or not, she hung up the phone directly. Li Yunze listened to the "dududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududu. He Yining worked in the clinic for a day. After work, he went to the supermarket near his home to buy vegetables. She pushed the shopping cart and quickly bought the raw materials of the dishes to be cooked in the evening in the dishes area When she was weighing, she found that she had bought raw materials for several kinds of vegetables without considering anything. Frown slightly. Why should Ning take the delicious food and put it in the shopping cart while looking at it in doubt? It seems that there is something flashing in his mind, but he doesn''t know what it is? "Hey, you''re ready. Excuse me, will you?" There was a voice of disgust behind him. Why should Ning suddenly return to his mind, look at the man with an apologetic face, and hurried away with the shopping cart When he Yining prepared the raw materials for cooking at home, he still didn''t figure out why he chose the materials so quickly to cook the dishes to be cooked later?! ¡­¡­ Li Yunze parked the car. After getting off the bus, he first looked at the direction of Ning''s house, and then sent a message to Chen Yu and Gu Beichen: the news of Yining and I have been fried for too long. Stop at night! Chen Yu reply: are you sure? I think this news is very helpful to you and Yining. Gu Beichen replied more directly: do you compensate for the loss of hot search? Li Yunze edited another message and sent it to two people This time, Chen Yu''s tone was totally disgusted: unexpectedly, you are such a Li Yunze! Gu Beichen gave Li Yunze an ellipsis this time, which was simpler than the direct one just now. Li Yunze looked at the two people''s reply. After a slight smile on one side of his mouth, he took out the key and went directly to open the door However, when the key poked in, it couldn''t twist. With a slight frown, Li Yunze thought he had taken the wrong key, but he confirmed it several times. After confirming that he had not taken the wrong key, he poked the key in again... He still couldn''t twist. Li Yunze smiled and sighed helplessly. "He Yining, you play tricks with me, don''t you?" Li Yunze took out the key. "I really think I can''t get the key if I change the lock!" Li Yunze installed the key and rang the doorbell. He Yining just brought out the last soup, subconsciously looked at the direction of the door, put down the soup and opened the door Looking at Li Yunze''s shriveled appearance, why is Ning inexplicable in a particularly good mood, "why, don''t you like to come to dinner? You can''t come!" "Ha ha," Li Yunze smiled, "why not? I can''t wait to live with you." "Do you like this house? I can sublet it to you..." he Yining looked innocent. "..." Li Yunze found out. Now he Yining is absolutely the first person to pretend to be innocent. "Come in!" He Yining said and turned sideways. Looking at Li Yunze''s strange look, she didn''t dare to "flirt" more. For fear that he would go too far, he went straight into a rage. A meal, the food is fairly easy-going. Under Li Yunze''s obsession these days, why is he more or less used to his style. One word... Mouth owe! "Li Yunze, the meal has been eaten. When will the news be withdrawn?" He Yining asked when Li Yunze put down his chopsticks. "He Yining, have you found it?" Li Yunze didn''t answer the question, "these dishes you cooked today are all the ones I praised you for doing well before." He Yining twisted his eyebrows and didn''t speak immediately. He just looked at Li Yunze and wondered. When did she cook for him? I don''t know why. I feel like I''ve had such an experience again. Li Yunze looked at why Ning gradually lost his mind. There was a trace of desire in the bottom of his eyes, but he gradually pressed down Yining, if loving me really makes you tired physically and mentally, now let me love you. Whether you remember your love for me or not, I want to spend the rest of my life... Loving you well. "However, you really only have these dishes." Li Yunze interrupted he Yining''s thoughts, picked his eyebrow and said, "how about I go back and cook a meal for you to eat and find the gap?" Why rather stared, "what I do is not as delicious as you. I think you are also very happy!" As she spoke, she also looked at several plates that were basically empty. "Didn''t I love you?" Li Yunze smiled at he Yining and said in a charming voice, "beauty is in the eyes of lovers... As long as you give it to me, I think it''s the best!" Chapter 1658 It seemed that he Yining''s heart suddenly vibrated because of Li Yunze''s burning sight. She looked at Li Yunze and looked at him. At that moment, there was an indescribable emotion bumping in her heart... Making her breathing disorderly. Li Yunze looked at he Yining in this way. Looking at her stunned appearance, the corners of her mouth gradually raised a smile, "why, do you suddenly feel that I love you, especially happy?" He Yining shivered with cold body, stared angrily at Li Yunze, and got up to clean up the dishes and chopsticks. However, the inexplicable emotion in her heart still stayed, which made her feel a little flustered and at a loss. With a bang, the bowl just picked up slipped from he Yining''s hand and fell on the table again. He Yining looked at Li Yunze subconsciously and saw his eyes looking at her deeply, "Why are you looking at me like this?" She said it without reason, quickly converged her sight, hurriedly cleaned up the dishes and chopsticks and walked to the kitchen Li Yunze smiled, "Yining, did you blush just now?" With a bang, some dishes fell to the ground and broke. Li Yunze smiled more recklessly. He Yining looked back angrily in the kitchen Although, as far as she could see, she couldn''t see the crazy smiling man. He Yining grinded in the kitchen for a while before going out. Looking at Li Yunze''s look at her, she secretly feigned and asked angrily, "is there any news yet?" "See for yourself..." Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. He Yining looked at Li Yunze suspiciously and took out his mobile phone. Obviously, Li Yunze is trustworthy. After searching around, he Yining found that the news about her and Li Yunze was basically gone, and the sporadic ones couldn''t turn out any big waves "You can go." He Yining immediately ordered him to leave. Li Yunze lowered his eyes, raised his lips and got up. He walked to he Yining. Just when he Yining felt a dangerous breath approaching and just wanted to dodge, Li Yunze had put his arms around her waist and rolled her against the wall Why would you rather have a heartbeat like thunder. The man''s breath and the feeling of being close at once made her feel that the heat flow was flowing to her limbs and bones in an instant. Li Yunze brought himself closer to why he Ning pasted. In addition to their clothes, they were close. Why Ning''s breathing became heavy. She wanted to push Li Yunze away, but I don''t know why. Her body was so hot and dry because of his proximity that she had no strength at all "What do you want to do?" He Yining feels a little thirsty. "I want to do..." Li Yunze stared at he Yining. When she looked over, her lips seemed to inadvertently across her cheek and slowly dropped the last word in her ear, "... You!" Why Ning opened her mouth slightly? The feeling of embarrassment but irresistible made her whole person feel bad. Li Yunze originally just wanted to flirt with he Yining, and didn''t think about what to do further? However, at the moment of fitting, he couldn''t help it instinctively. Lips have begun to sweep away the skin around the ears The crisp touch made he Yining''s body soft all at once. No matter how much resistance in consciousness, the body is the most honest... He Yining can''t resist Li Yunze''s caress at all. "Li... Li Yunze..." he Yining''s voice could not help shaking, "you, you... Don''t... Um..." The discourse, broken and full of ambiguity under the light breath, was finally interrupted by the exhortation overflowing from the sensory stimulation that stirred up the mind. "Yining..." Li Yunze suddenly stopped sweeping the lips of Yining skin, buried his face in the middle of her neck and said with heavy breath, "if everything starts from scratch, I just hope you don''t resist what I have done to you." He Yining''s breathing is still heavy, and his heartbeat seems to break out of his chest. Her thoughts were confused. She didn''t hear what Li Yunze was saying at all? Li Yunze slowly raised his head and looked at he Yining with burning eyes. After a long time, he secretly clenched his teeth and endured something, but his face was a smile that didn''t deserve beating, "he Yining, tell me about you. After giving birth to one by one with me, there is no man. Aren''t you empty, lonely and cold?" He Yining turned to Li Yunze and his face changed several times. "Anyway, we are husband and wife. It''s a long night... It''s better to..." "Not as good as you!" Why should Ning suddenly wake up, push Li Yunze away, look at the annoying smile on his face, and say angrily, "Li Yunze, you bastard who thinks with your lower body!" "Asshole can give you the deep love of passion!" Li Yunze didn''t blush when he spoke, but he Yining blushed because of his natural appearance. "You..." Why are you embarrassed? "You''re shameless!" Then she came forward and grabbed Li Yunze''s wrist and left. "Are you impatient to pull me to your bed?" Li Yunze continued to laugh and ridicule. Why did Ning turn back angrily and stare at him without saying anything, so he pulled Li Yunze to the door Unfortunately, after Li Yunze flirted with her, how could he leave? Just when he Ning wanted to open the door, Li Yunze directly pressed her on the door Lips, seal her when she wants to speak, turn and stir the beauty in her mouth. The warmth of the breath sandwiched in various complex emotions dyed the surrounding air ambiguous, with a trace of shallow sadness. I don''t know how long he kissed. When he Yining''s body and subconscious were immersed in Li Yunze''s enthusiasm, he didn''t go any further Why should Ning suddenly look at Li Yunze emptily, with a pair of eyes, which are full of subconscious confusion and hook people. She didn''t know how much strength Li Yunze needed at this moment to resist his impatience. "Yining..." Li Yunze''s voice was as if shrouded in the night. "I''m not leaving tonight." Why Ning frowned slightly, and the corners of his mouth moved back and forth to say something "Don''t worry, I won''t do anything." Li Yunze caught a layer of sadness in the bottom of his eyes, "I just have an operation to do early tomorrow morning. I don''t want to toss back and forth..." He Yining just wanted to refuse Li Yunze''s words here, because he said he would have an operation and swallowed it back. "Then you sleep in one room..." he Yining thought about it and warned, "Li Yunze, if you have any misconduct at night, we will divorce directly!" She didn''t know whether she wanted to escape her greed for Li Yunze or something. She pushed him away and hurried to the bedroom. However, at the moment, he Yining was worried that Li Yunze was a misguided thought... But he never thought of his real purpose of staying overnight! Chapter 1659 Chen Yu held Li Jinxi from behind and put his chin gently on her shoulder. They looked at the few stars on the ink sky outside In today''s cities, it''s not easy to see the stars. Li Jinxi tilted his face slightly backward, and the sight was Chen Yu''s enlarged facial skin. The biggest difference between men and women is that after 30, even if they are not as well maintained as women, their skin is better than women "Do you think Yunze will annoy Yining?" Li Jinxi asked curiously, but the corners of his mouth raised a expectant smile when his words fell. Chen Yu looked at the cunning on his wife''s face and pecked at the corner of her mouth and said, "Yining''s temperament is different from that of ordinary women. How tenacious she used to love Yunze, how much she will escape now..." his eyes were deep, and his eyes fell on the ink space again. "Yunze can only take Yunze as a part of her life if she keeps blowing her hair." Li Jinxi frowned slightly, "why do you want to escape?" She couldn''t figure it out. "Mingming loves her so much. Now Yunze loves her too... Shouldn''t we be together better?" Chen Yu''s eyes became deeper and deeper, but it was only for a moment that he recovered his calm and looked back at Li Jinxi. "Love is a matter of each other. We know whether we are warm or cold... Our way of thinking is in the position of bystanders, and the angle of view is naturally different." He kissed Li Jinxi again. "Don''t worry, as long as Yunze has an idea, it can be done sooner or later." She threw her arms around her and hit her directly With that, Chen Yu has walked in the direction of the bedroom Li Yunze didn''t say, but he also guessed why Ning had something to do with Li Yunhao. Why would you rather wake up and forget your love for Yunze alone? It''s because you love so much... That you''re afraid to continue to hurt. Of course, he can''t tell Jinxi about it. Jinxi finally forgives him, because he Yining has something to do with Li Yunhao, and he is also related to the event... Doesn''t he have nowhere to cry? Night, in a few warm, a few melancholy slowly past The warm spring morning comes a little earlier than winter. Why should Li Yunze have made breakfast when he got up. "What did you do?" He Yining looked at Li Yunze suspiciously. "Or you did it?" Li yunning handed the chopsticks to he Yunyi and asked. Why would you rather curl your lips, "I didn''t do it, you can buy it!" Then she picked up the noodle soup and ate it. "Mmm... Delicious!" Li Yunze looked at her with a smile in his eyes, "delicious?" "En en!" Why would you rather nod without stingy praise, "I didn''t expect you to have a scalpel in your hand and be an expert in cooking." "Why don''t you keep me here and I''ll cook for you every day?" Li Yunze''s mouth was filled with laughter. "Ha ha!" He Yining immediately cold face, do not speak, continue to eat noodles in soup. "Wait, I''ll take you to the hospital." Li Yunze also fished noodles and began to eat. "I''m going to have a little night today," why would you rather lift your eyes and smile at the corners of your mouth, "so you can go by yourself." "I didn''t listen to you yesterday..." "Why do I report everything to you?" "You are my wife!" "But you are just my husband in name..." "I''m your legal husband. In what name?" Li Yunze was dissatisfied. Why would she rather shrug and stop answering? She didn''t admit Li Yunze''s words. Li Yunze''s face was a little dark. Eating noodles, he seemed to suck in the blood of why Ning After breakfast, Li Yunze left. He Yining thought about taking over the shift at noon and looking at the time. One by one, it was still night. She planned to leave a message for one by one and let her get up and send her a video call. It''s OK not to take the mobile phone. As soon as you take it... Looking at the headlines pushed, why Ning''s whole person exploded in an instant. "Li Yunze''s way of chasing his wife was originally complicated and confusing. He Yining stayed at home last night and didn''t leave until this morning..." The title seems to be just entertaining gossip, looking at pictures and talking. However, the whole article at the bottom not only shows why he would rather go to the supermarket to buy vegetables, but also the scene of Li Yunze leaving triumphantly in the morning. The most important thing is People in the media are all pervasive. They even take pictures of two people eating at home. Even after dinner, they show their "love" on the wall next to the dinner table, as if they were caught off fire. Why rather gnash her teeth? She doesn''t know whether the media people are too powerful or what Li Yunze deliberately arranged In short, although the floor where she lives is not high, it takes a lot of effort to shoot the scene inside from outside the window?! Why rather than think about it, he directly dialed Li Yunze''s phone. When Li Yunze called he Yining, a treacherous smile crossed the corner of his mouth. He hung up Bluetooth and pressed the connect button "Li Yunze -" The roar almost damaged Li Yunze''s eardrum. He twisted his eyebrows and gave way, but forgot that he was wearing headphones. "Li Yunze, don''t tell me that today''s news came out unintentionally!" Why should I rather gnash my teeth? The voice shows the anger of eating people. "News? What news?" Li Yunze pretended to be a fool. "Don''t tell me you don''t know?" Why was Ning so angry that he felt pain in his forehead, "you came to my house for dinner last night and deliberately stayed. Everything was premeditated, right?" "What do you mean? I really don''t know..." Li Yunze continued to pretend to be a fool. Why did Ning sneer and say the news content, "so, all this is a routine... Right?! you lose the previous news, and then have a more powerful one!" Li Yunze''s mouth has opened, but his voice still said innocently: "Yining, if you think I did it, it''s useless for me to explain, isn''t it?" "Ha ha!" "Our news has been making noise for so long. It''s not normal for paparazzi to wire around you and me for big news?" Li Yunze looked at the road and turned the car into Huakang. "I''ve arrived at the hospital. Think about it yourself. I''ll prepare for the operation first." Li Yunze hung up the phone directly. He Yining listened to the hanging tone, and his whole face became distorted because of anger. "I really believe you......" he Yining said and sent a message to Li Yunze: let the news disappear, otherwise... Divorce! Must divorce! Li Yunze looked at why Ning was angry and replied indifferently: Well, do you want me to find you a lawyer? "..." why did Ning take a smoke from the corner of his mouth and want to throw it out with his mobile phone. But when her hand was raised, she stopped. The mobile phone is your own. If it breaks down, you have to buy it yourself. It''s inappropriate Chapter 1660 "Hahaha..." Laughter filled the ''Changhuan Garden'' villa early in the morning. Jian Mo couldn''t contain his emotions watching the news. Jian Jie and j looked at Jian Mo with disgust on their faces, shook their heads one after another, and felt that she had become crazy as a matchmaker. "Ah Chen, come quickly..." Jian Mo saw Gu Beichen jogging, went upstairs to wash down, and quickly waved, "why do you have such a funny brother?" Gu Beichen knew Li Yunze''s plan yesterday. He asked someone to take the picture. It was expected to be released by Chen Yu. "Yining is suitable for such a way. Yunze''s direction is right." Gu Beichen said and sat down beside Jian Mo, "wait for mom to come and take Yan Yan with us to get the vaccine, and then mom will take Yan Yan to Su''s house. Will you go to the company with me?" "Well," Jane Mo answered, putting down her mobile phone, "Shen Chu and I are going to participate in this year''s architectural design competition." After a pause, she looked at Gu Beichen, "she and I intend to cooperate with Xiangyu and emperor in the form of studio. President Yu and I have discussed it before. There is no problem." Gu Beichen just wanted to serve coffee when Jian Mo glanced at his actions He was so indifferent, as if nothing had happened. He took water and drank, "the emperor is yours. Are you affiliated with yourself?" "If you don''t tell me, I''ve forgotten again," Jian Mo sat down. "I''m the emperor''s largest shareholder now. You''re just a professional manager appointed by me." Gu Beichen chuckled and didn''t refute. J said "cut" directly and coldly, and clearly disliked Jane Mo''s attitude towards touching the pole. "J, are you going to report to school this afternoon?" Jane Mo selectively ignored J''s dislike and said, "please take Xiao Jie to report this afternoon, and I won''t come back." "I''ll send Xiao Jie to report." Gu Beichen answered. Jane Mo frowned slightly. "Don''t you have a meeting in the afternoon?" Xiao Jing has been sent abroad. Recently, the general manager of his family will be the emperor. "Pushed back..." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Jie and saw that he had uncontrollable happiness in his eyes. His thin lips raised a faint arc and said, "when signing up for school, parents always have to be there." As soon as Jane Mo heard this, she looked at Jane Jie with some guilt, "it''s mother''s thoughtlessness..." "I didn''t expect your brain to be thoughtful." Jane Jie left her mouth and felt a little happy. Although he learned to be independent at a young age in order not to burden his mother... However, independence does not mean that he does not want to be spoiled by his parents. After breakfast, cen Lanxi and Gu Moyuan came. After several people went to Huakang to vaccinate Yan Yan, cen Lanxi and Gu Moyuan left with their little granddaughter. Gu Beichen and Jian Moren went to Huakang. Naturally, they didn''t go to "greet" Li Yunze, who has been in the headlines and hot search these days. It''s definitely not a brother. "Yining must be angry?" Jane Mo asked with a smile. "Yes." Li Yunze put down the stethoscope, "roared to divorce me. I also figured out whether to hire a lawyer for her." "I can introduce her..." Jian Mo immediately raised her eyebrows. "My cousin, nephew and best friend are all lawyers!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Li Yunze and Gu Beichen, two men, were speechless by Jian Mo, who was not too big. Mainly, when it comes to the names of Mo Shaochen and Chu Zixiao, they always have an indescribable sense of disobedience. After teasing Li Yunze for a while, Gu Beichen and Jian Mo left Huakang. But who knows, when the talent went out, he saw that Chu Zixiao''s car stopped in the parking lot in a hurry, followed by someone to get off the car in a hurry. "Xiao Zi?" Jane Mo shouted. Chu Zixiao also saw them. He first looked at the direction of the emergency room, then looked at Gu Beichen and said, "I have something here. I''ll talk about it later." Words fall, the person has a dignified face and hurried to the emergency building "What''s the matter?" Jane Mo frowned and whispered, "do you want to go and have a look?" "It is estimated that the person related to the case was admitted to the hospital." After Gu Beichen said something lightly, he motioned Jian Mo to get on the bus. Jane Mo was worried, but she didn''t want to follow the past. She just had an indescribable sense of uncertainty along the way to the emperor. ¡­¡­ Huakang hospital, emergency room. The rescue was going on nervously. Chu Zixiao looked at the closed door with his hands in his trouser pockets. Jun''s face was already tight together As time passed by, footsteps came from behind, and the catkins came in a hurry. "What''s going on?" Tang Yu looked at Chu Zixiao in horror. Chu Zixiao''s dignified face was getting heavier and heavier because of his questions. Tang Yu saw Chu Zixiao''s face like this, and the whole person became heavy He looked at the direction of the emergency room and opened his mouth. Several times, he didn''t say anything. After a while, the emergency room door was opened. Chu Zixiao greeted him almost the first time, "doctor, how''s it going?" The doctor shook his head solemnly, "after the best rescue time, there is no way." Chu Zixiao closed his eyes and endured. Although he knew that the situation was not very optimistic, he still had hope Tang Yu looked at Chu Zixiao, sighed and patted him on the shoulder. He didn''t say anything. Maybe, many things are doomed from the beginning No matter how hard Zixiao tries, he will bear the consequences for what he has done. ¡­¡­ "Xiao Nian, don''t you have to go to work today?" Holding her waist in her hand, Yang Yi walked out of the bedroom slowly. Zhang Nian kept cleaning up the house and said with a smile: "Yan Yan is going to have a vaccination today, and then grandpa and grandma are going to pick up Su''s house to play around. I don''t have to go there today..." "Alas, it''s very kind of Gu and Gu Fu." Yang Yi sighed and sat down in a chair beside her. Looking at the busy Zhang Nian, there was sadness under guilt in her eyes. "Yes, they are very good..." Zhang Nian looked back at Yang Yi and continued to clean, "and Yan Yan is also very easy to take... He is still so small and is basically sleeping." Zhang Nian seemed to be full of energy. While cleaning, he talked to Yang Yi about Yan Yan Although Yang Yi has listened to it many times, every time she hears Zhang Nian talking about the little princess, it seems as if a child is right in front of her. "I still remember when you were just born..." Yang Yi sighed softly. "Your father, like President Gu, is happy all day around you." Referring to Zhang Zhengtang, Zhang Nian hesitated slightly, then smiled and said, "in another week, it''s time to see her father..." she stopped, turned around and smiled at Yang Yi, "Mom, your body is recovering well. Let''s go together this time?" "OK..." As soon as Yang Yi answered, Zhang Nian''s mobile phone rang. She put down her rag and went to get her cell phone. Seeing that it was from the prison, she first frowned and then picked it up When hearing the sound coming from inside, Zhang Nian''s pupils dilated instantly, and the whole person froze there... Forgot the reaction. Chapter 1661 Yang Yi looked at her daughter and waited for a while. Seeing her motionless, she frowned slightly. Because Zhang Nian turned her back to Yang Yi, she couldn''t see her daughter''s expression at the moment After a while, Yang Yi twisted her eyebrows and shouted, "Xiao Nian? What''s the matter? Who called?" The continuous questions didn''t wake Zhang Nian up from his stupor. She just stared, her eyes gradually ruddy, and her stinging eyelashes kept trembling slightly. There was a voice on the phone, "Miss Zhang? Miss Zhang... Are you still listening?" "I..." Zhang Nian just wanted to spit out ''dad'', because he suddenly thought that his mother was behind him and swallowed it back. She bit her lower lip, tried to contain her grief, and gently answered, "listening." "You''d better come today." The other party''s voice is helpless under some sigh. "OK..." Zhang Nian tried not to overflow too much emotion, but her heart was in angina pectoris and her voice trembled uncontrollably. Yang Yi''s eyebrows and hearts were tightly screwed together. She looked at her daughter''s body, but she couldn''t help trembling slightly. She didn''t know what had happened. Zhang Nian hung up the phone. It was as if she had been evacuated. She was so soft that she could hardly support herself. "Xiao Nian?" Yang Yi felt something. "Is something happening?" Zhang Nian bit her lip and tried to force back the tears that were about to burst out of her eyes. At the same time, she pulled back at the corner of her mouth. "Mom, there''s something..." she tried to take a deep breath, "I need to deal with it." As she spoke, her eyes were uncontrollably red. She doesn''t know how to tell her mother or how to face it But at this moment, she can only face! Yang Yi frowned, "Xiao Nian, what happened? Tell your mother and see if her mother can help you out." "I''m not sure yet," Zhang Nian swallowed her sadness. "I have to go and make sure if it''s true... Before I know whether to solve it." Yang Yi twisted her eyebrows and wanted to ask something, but under the resistance of her inner subconscious, she didn''t ask. Zhang Nian tried to pull down the corner of his mouth again. "Well... Mom, I''ll go and see the situation first. If you have something, call me." "Good!" Yang Yi didn''t continue to ask her daughter. She felt that her daughter was about to lose her support. Zhang Nian left in a hurry. Yang Yi sat there and looked at the closed door. Her eyes turned red for a moment. Although I didn''t ask, although Xiaonian didn''t say But she seems to feel something?! After Zhang Nian left, he went straight to the corridor. When she was halfway down the stairs, her legs softened. If she didn''t grasp the handrail quickly, I''m afraid she would fall down "Woo..." Zhang Nian sat limply on the stairs. The just suppressed emotion burst out and burst into uncontrollable tears. She doesn''t know what to do. She''s afraid... Go and see! Sobs echoed in the empty corridor, filled with the strange smell under the old house Someone went downstairs to throw garbage. Looking at Zhang Nian crying with her legs in her arms, she turned aside with a puzzled face. However, when he went down to the next floor, the man looked up at the sound blocked by the railing and sighed secretly. The little girl has to take care of her mother who can hardly take care of herself and work... I''m afraid it''s too much pressure?! The man thought so, but he couldn''t guess at all. Zhang Nian''s sadness at the moment is not pressure, but... Possible parting. Farewell... Forever! The mobile phone came from Zhang Nian''s cry. She looked up and wiped her tears. She took out her mobile phone... Seeing Chu Zixiao, she closed her eyes and squeezed out all the tears in her eyes. Zhang Nian opened it again, his red hazy eyes slid the answer button, and his hand trembled to move the mobile phone to his ear Chu Zixiao was silent at first, and then his voice said with complex emotions, "I''ll pick you up in about 20 minutes." "You know?" Zhang Nian''s voice choked badly. Chu Zixiao''s face was dignified, and his voice was filled with a trace of forbearance. He answered, "HMM." Paused, "a case to be heard involves people in the prison over there..." Zhang Nian''s tears began to "brush" down again. "Then my father..." her voice was broken because of choking and fear. "My father will be fine, right?" Chu Zixiao wants to tell Zhang Nian that Zhang Zhengtang will be fine. But He hopes it''s okay, too! He is probably the person who most hopes that Zhang Zhengtang will be all right except Zhang nianwang. Seeing that Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, Zhang Nian''s tears poured out uncontrollably, "Chu Zixiao, tell me, dad will be fine, right?" "Little Nian," Chu Zixiao shouted, and his voice became more and more dignified. "Is there anything we need to go and see before we know." He wanted to comfort her, but if the comfort at this moment, in exchange for the sadness under expectation, led to Zhang Nian''s collapse... He would rather not. Zhang Nian hung up the phone and tried to take a deep breath for several times. Then she got up with the handrail. Her body is still very soft. She went downstairs almost relying on the support of the handrail The sunshine outside is just right, and the spring in Los Angeles is a very comfortable climate. But this kind of comfort can not warm Zhang Nian''s heart at the moment. Chu Zixiao drove with Zhang Nian all the way to Yuncheng prison The journey takes more than two hours, but Chu Zixiao''s speed is very fast, reducing the time to less than two hours. Standing at the gate of Yuncheng prison, because Chu Zixiao has the special identity of criminal defense lawyer, he and Zhang Nian don''t even need to register. They have arrived at the office of the director of the prison. "It''s our negligence," said the director with a dignified face. "After Li Hai was taken over by Los Angeles prison yesterday, we found that Zhang Zhengtang was a little uncomfortable... But we didn''t deal with it in time, which was the result." Chu Zixiao sank his face. "Los Angeles has already said hello in advance. Li Hai was involved in this case, but you didn''t pay attention to it. Hiding the previous things together not only caused the harm of Zhang Zhengtang, but Li Hai is now taken over by Los Angeles and has been accidentally..." his voice was filled with a private resentment, "Now you''re done with an oversight?!" The director''s face was a little embarrassed, but he couldn''t say anything Chu Zixiao''s background and his own field can''t tolerate his arrogance at the moment. Chu Zixiao got up, "I''ll go and see the next political hall first." "OK, I''ll take you there..." the director pressed down his breath and got up and left the office with Chu Zixiao. Outside, Zhang Nian is waiting, his eyes red. Seeing Chu Zixiao coming out, there was urgency in his eyes. Chu Zixiao was dignified. He knew the bad news from the director. He was afraid that he would not stand it until next Zhang Nian Chapter 1662 "Let''s go!" Chu Zixiao spoke softly. Zhang Nian nodded and walked up to keep up with Chu Zixiao. The director looked at Zhang Nian and sympathized with her. After all, Zhangjia used to be a famous family in Yuncheng. The director is more or less related to Zhangjia. Unfortunately, the trees fall and the monkeys scatter... Some things make people feel booed, but they are also very realistic. When Zhang Nian saw Zhang Zhengtang lying in the isolation ward, his nose was suddenly stung and his tears fell down uncontrollably. "Dad, Dad..." Zhang Nian patted the window, his voice filled with grief. However, let her slap and cry, Zhang Zhengtang inside did not respond at all. "He was beaten all by secret wounds," the director sighed deeply. "At first, no one will pay attention. After all, in prison..." he stopped talking and continued, "when he found out, his internal organs had been bleeding and there was no way to rescue." Chu Zixiao is a person who knows the inner way. The director didn''t modify too much and said it directly. Zhang Nian is immersed in sadness and can''t hear what the director is talking about?! Chu Zixiao came forward, gently hugged Zhang Nian''s shoulder and said, "Xiao Nian..." he twisted his eyebrows and looked at Zhang Zhengtang lying inside. There was only one last breath left. What he wanted to say could not be said any more. Whether it was an accident or not, it became more and more difficult between him and Zhang Nian. Zhang Zhengtang involved the fate of too many people. That time, he pulled many people off the horse, but the people who really touched the bones and muscles didn''t pull them down. Zhang Zhengtang still has extravagant hopes. He must also want to go out through some channels. But when things come out, those people will not get him out on the cusp of the storm, nor can they leave a time bomb around them. Well, the safest person in the world who won''t tell a secret... Only the dead! Therefore, Li Hai killed Zhang Zhengtang, and the other party also killed Li Hai during the handover in his case He had planned to start with Li Hai''s case and try to find a way to reduce Zhang Zhengtang''s extravagant hope, which was also completely extinguished. As long as the problem between him and Zhang Nian is solved... There is still hope. But now Zhang Nian was crying. When she didn''t want to cry at the last breath, her eyes turned black and she softened. "Xiaonian, Xiaonian..." Chu Zixiao''s anxious voice overflowed with worry. Seeing that Zhang Nian didn''t respond, he picked her up and ran out. Zhang Nian had a dream. In the dream, she was only five or six years old, sitting in the yard, on the swing specially made for her by her father "A little higher, a little higher... Cluck... Dad... I''m going to fly..." "My family is flying... Flying..." "Cluck..." How warm and happy the scene in the dream is, how sad and painful Zhang Nian''s expression is at the moment. "Dad..." "Dad..." Zhang Nian murmured, his voice choking, and his eyebrows frowned together. "Dad, don''t leave... Dad... I''ll be obedient... And stay with you... Please, don''t leave..." Chu Zixiao listened to Zhang Nian''s whisper and frowned more and more tightly. At this moment, what he thought was not that he and Zhang Nian were becoming more and more difficult, but... She was also a victim. Why did he vent because he was designed and leave all the pain to her? "Xiaonian, there is no regret medicine in the world, but I really regret it..." Chu Zixiao''s big palm gently touched Zhang Nian''s cheek, rubbed her frown with his finger belly, and said in a dignified sad voice, "no matter to Mo Mo Mo or you... I always regret after I hurt." He smiled with self mockery, but his expression was unbearable pain. Time passed in sorrow. When Zhang Nian woke up again, the lights were already on. She didn''t lose control and run away at that time. There was only peace. However, it is precisely because of this calm that people feel afraid Someone came in and looked at Chu Zixiao and then read to Zhang, "Zhang Zhengtang woke up..." Zhang Nian finally changed his look and looked eagerly at Chu Zixiao. "I''ll take you there." Chu Zixiao spoke softly and took Zhang Nian to see Zhang Zhengtang. When Zhang Zhengtang wakes up, everyone knows that it is a reflection... This may be the last side of Zhang Nian and him. "You go in." Chu Zixiao spoke. The people in the prison frowned slightly and looked at each other one after another. They didn''t know whether to stop it or not. Anyway, Zhang Zhengtang is still in custody. It''s against the rules to let him get along with outsiders alone. But Chu Zixiao spoke, and it''s hard for everyone to stop it directly. "Let''s go in..." the director came in at the right time. After a long speech, they naturally wouldn''t say anything. They opened the door and let Zhang Nian in. When Zhang Nianlin went in, he looked back at Chu Zixiao. Under his slight nod, the man turned and entered the isolation ward. I can''t hear the conversation outside, but inside. Chu Zixiao could only see Zhang Zhengtang. He looked angry and helpless... Finally, he seemed to become the calm of the dying man. No one knows what Zhang Zhengtang said to Zhang Nian? When Zhang Zhengtang wanted to touch Zhang Nian''s hand, it fell when he just touched her cheek. Everyone knows... He''s gone! Zhang Nian didn''t cry when she just saw Zhang Zhengtang at that time. She just grabbed her father''s dry hand and put his hand on her cheek "Dad, you love me so much..." Zhang Nian sobbed and looked at Zhang Zhengtang''s vision, because the tears became unreal and blurred, "but you can''t go back. You''re gone, leaving me and my mother... How do you let me face it? How do you tell my mother?" Zhang Nian sucked his nose and tears kept pouring out of his eyes. She slightly deviated her face and let her father''s hand stick closely to her face, just like when her father spoiled her in the past. However, this hand will no longer be warm, but cold into the heart Dad, at the last moment, you obviously have reluctance and anger in your heart, but you still think of my happiness... But he and I can''t do it anymore! Zhang Nian slowly closed her eyes. The tears in her eyes were squeezed out She felt the temperature in her father''s body and disappeared little by little. That "cool and cold" breath gradually wrapped her heart and made her body tremble uncontrollably. Chu Zixiao subconsciously took a small step forward, although he knew there was glass blocking him. He wrung his eyebrows slightly and looked at Zhang Nian. Looking at her like this, his heart... Gradually cooled down Chapter 1663 Spring rain comes without warning, and it seems that it is about to come Although Yang Yi had guessed in her heart, when she heard that Zhang Zhengtang really died in prison, she couldn''t accept it at once and fainted directly. Fortunately, Qiao Jinnian was there at that time, so he could respond in time and didn''t make Yang Yi''s condition worse because of excessive sadness. Zhang Zhengtang''s funeral was simple. With Qiao Jinnian''s company and Chu Zixiao''s secret help, all the dust settled in five days. Zhang Nian didn''t inform anyone. She was born in a rich family. It''s clear that no one will miss her father if she did. It will only bring more sarcasm. Under the drizzle, black umbrellas and black clothes made the whole cemetery particularly cold. Chu Zixiao and Tang Yu stood not far away, dressed in black, looking at the three people in front of the tomb. Yang Yi is sitting in a wheelchair. Zhang Nian and Qiao Jinnian are standing around. It looks like... They are a family. "Why don''t you tell Zhang Nian," said Tang Yu, looking at Qiao Jinnian in front of him. "You can''t take over Li Hai''s case. You just want to find an opportunity from him to commute Zhang Zhengtang''s sentence?" At the same time, Tang Yu looked at Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao narrowed his eyes, held his umbrella hand, slightly clenched it, and then slowly said, "what''s the use of saying?" He slowly let go of his clenched hand, his face calm as if there was no emotion, "people have gone, no matter how much... What''s the use?" Tang Yu felt a little heavy in his heart. After sighing gently, he looked at the three people in front of the tomb, "then you let Qiao Jinnian pick up a bargain for nothing?" Chu Zixiao took a deep look, slightly narrowed his eyes, and pressed down the sadness and guilt at the bottom of his eyes. No matter how sad and lost he is now, he must take responsibility for what he has done, doesn''t he? If you want to make up for it, you can''t escape fate after all. "Auntie, you are in poor health. Shall we go back first?" Qiao Jinnian spoke softly. Yang Yi''s face was haggard, as if she were a lot older all at once. Zhang Nian''s eyes are red and swollen, but she doesn''t cry anymore Now she and her mother are left at home. She must be stronger and let her mother know that she is still there. After taking a breath, Zhang Nian pressed down and said bitterly, "Mom, let''s go back to the hotel first?" Yang Yi nodded slightly and looked at the portrait on Zhang Zhengtang''s tombstone. Her heart was blocked with sadness, but she couldn''t melt it. After Qiao Zhengyi turned around and looked at Zhang Jinnian''s umbrella, he left again When seeing Chu Zixiao and Tang Yu in the distance, Qiao Jinnian''s face sank, but Yang Yi and Zhang Nian were calm. No matter who is right and who is wrong, who was right and who was wrong... For their mother and daughter, after Zhang Zhengtang died, they had nothing to do with Chu Zixiao anymore. The figure of the three people passed by Chu Zixiao indifferently, and then walked away Tang Yu frowned at Qiao Jinnian''s disdain when he passed by them, and his heart was dissatisfied. Anyway, what position does Qiao Jinnian have to despise Zixiao? Chu Zixiao didn''t move, but quietly looked at Zhang Nian''s thin back and gradually disappeared From taking her to Yuncheng to see Zhang Zhengtang, and then "accompanying" her to deal with the aftermath of Zhang Zhengtang, he saw that she had changed from a strong girl to a girl who seemed to have lost her soul. And he made all this himself. Even if he has reason But there is no escape. While Zhang Nian was a victim, she suffered his harm to her. She doesn''t complain, just because of guilt. She doesn''t hate, just because... Love! And he not only failed her love, but also did not deserve her beautiful love. If you are a stranger from now on, Xiaonian... I just want your next life to be safe. And I will only pay attention to you behind your back. "Xiao Zi?" Tang Yu saw that Chu Zixiao didn''t speak and looked more calm. He couldn''t help worrying. He and Zixiao are classmates and buddies. After more than ten years, they know this man''s temper too well. "I''m fine..." Chu Zixiao didn''t look at Tang Yu and knew he was worried. "I just think that if something is done, I just have to bear the consequences." Tang Yu sighed and said nothing. "Let''s go!" Chu Zixiao saw Zhang Nian and them get on Qiao Jinnian''s car from a distance. Then he looked back and stepped down the stairs. The rain is still falling. It''s not big, but it makes people feel sad and depressed. After Chu Zixiao and Tang Yu left Yuncheng cemetery, they went to prison to deal with Li Hai''s follow-up. Accidents after the handover, whether in Yuncheng or Los Angeles, have attracted the "attention" of the above people After all, this is a country of human rights. Even if it is a prisoner, such an accidental death is always unreasonable. But Chu Zixiao and Tang Yu, who have been in the criminal debate for too long, know very well that even if they "pay attention", what will happen? In the end, it''s just nothing, or there''s a scapegoat ¡­¡­ "Sister Mo, what are you thinking?" As soon as I entered Jianmo''s office in the evening, I saw her standing in front of the window, looking out in a daze with her arms around her chest. Jane Mo took back her sight, looked back at the night, restrained her thoughts, put down her arms and turned, "just in a daze..." she walked forward, "what''s the matter?" "This is the design drawing I completed. The director said that you are responsible for this project, and I''ll bring it to you again." "Yes." Jian Mo answered, unfolded the design drawing, looked at the circle, and said to Xiang night that there were two places that needed to be fine tuned, "after modification, you can go to proofing." "Good drop." After the happy reception in the evening, I was about to turn around and suddenly stopped walking. I wanted to talk and stop. "What''s the matter? What else?" Jane Mo asked, looking at the hesitation of Xiang night. Later in the evening, he opened his chair and sat down. He hesitated and asked, "sister Mo, I have a good student who is going to graduate this year..." "Well, then?" Jane Mo asked with a smile. Xiang night, this man looks at what he wants on weekdays, but there is no such thing as going through the back door. "Yes... He studies law," Xiang night said with some embarrassment. "In the future, he also takes the direction of punishment and debate, and wants to go to Chu Xuechang..." "Just go to practice. Just say it. It''s not a big deal." Jian Mo smiled. After years of polishing, he has gradually faded away. When he came to practice, he was young and more sophisticated. "However, whether he can stay in the end depends on his ability." "I know, I know." Xiangwan grinned, "even now a good internship place is too difficult, so I''ll help him find an internship place." After a pause, she got up, "thank you, sister Mo, I love you so much!" Jane Mo shook her head with a smile and gradually restrained the smile on her face after she left the office at night. With a slight sigh, she took her cell phone and dialed Chu Zixiao''s phone... I want to ask, how is Zhang Nian''s father handling?! Chapter 1664 Chu Zixiao just returned to the hotel from prison and received a call from Jian mo. looking at the heavy rain outside, he clicked the answer button and put it in his ear, "Mo Mo?" Jane Mo was slightly silent and asked, "how''s things going over there?" "It''s all taken care of." Chu Zixiao gently converged his sight and turned, "there are still some things to deal with in the prison. It is estimated that he will go back tomorrow." "Yes." Jane Mo answered and wanted to ask about the matter between them, but she knew the result clearly. "Mo Mo, there are some things that should be undertaken no matter whether they are right or wrong at the beginning. I won''t escape." Chu Zixiao sat down in the chair and looked at the open notebook. There was an email from the law firm. He opened it according to the trend. Jian Mo sighed, "Zixiao, I know about you and Xiaonian. No matter how much you say now, it''s just comfort." She paused. "As long as you know how to go next, I think you can always go the right way." "Yes." Chu Zixiao answered, as if he didn''t have much emotion. However, the emotion without emotion is the most forbearing Jian Mo and Chu Zixiao said a few more words before hanging up. For the former first love, the current husband and nephew, Jane Mo''s state of mind has already changed. There are no waves under the emotion. Some are just the care of the family. The news of Zhang Zhengtang''s death has attracted the attention of the media. It''s a big family that used to be beautiful. Now it comes to a miserable end, which inevitably makes some people sigh Just, a few happy, a few sad. While some people have made various remarks about Zhang Zhengtang''s death, people in Los Angeles also pay high attention to the recent gossip between Li Yunze and he Yining. No, just after the news heat of Li Yunze''s overnight stay at Ning''s house passed, Li Yunze came to use public affairs for personal gain. With the convenience of Ning, Li Yunze directly reached an agreement with Ma Guangming, President of Shuya hospital, on Huakang''s new share of drugs this year. "Dean, I really want to resign like you!" Why are you so angry that you can''t, "you just give me some exchange and study without my consent... Just for Huakang''s medicine, do you think it''s really good to betray the doctors in your hospital?" Ma Guangming could not close his mouth with a smile. He felt that he had found a treasure in the hospital. Not only passed the medical skills, but also easily got Huakang''s medicine. He felt that the most successful thing he did in the post of Dean was to sign he Yining. "Doctor he, you''re wrong..." Ma Guangming poured a glass of water for he Yining himself. "Don''t say that in private, you and Li Shao are husband and wife, that''s the public level, and getting Huakang''s medicine is a matter for the benefit of patients... You always care about patients, and you can''t let Shuya have no chance to get the medicine for your own sake?!" "..." why did Ning yank his lips and gnash his teeth and say, "at least say hello to me in advance? I was suddenly told that I was going to Huakang for three months. What the hell?" Ma Guangming shrugged. "Also, when did the exchange and learning start in this city?" Why rather sneered. "Huakang is a three special, we are also a top three, and it''s normal to communicate there..." Ma Guangming pulled out a document from the folder. "Moreover, this thing is really not Li Shao''s use of public affairs for personal gain." He Yining took the document and looked around. It turned out that the medical supervision bureau had issued the document years ago. In order to promote the medical level of Los Angeles, the third class a hospital selected one or two attending doctors to participate in the exchange and study. The document was issued before she woke up. "However, Shu Ya chose you to go there. It''s really that I''m using public affairs for personal gain." Ma Guangming frankly admitted, "Li Shao not only gave Shuya a copy of the medicine in this quarter, but also promised to give Shuya a copy of the medicine in the next batch." He sighed with relief. "Dr. he, just go for the sake of patients and hospitals... Besides, it''s also a learning opportunity." "Ha ha!" Why Ning smiled, put down the document, left the dean''s office without saying anything. As soon as he went out, he Yining called Li Yunze. Li Yunze is explaining things to people outside God. It''s no surprise to see why Yining calling. "The rest of you have a small meeting, sort out the report and send it to me." "OK, Li Shao!" Li Yunze nodded slightly, scratched the answer button of his mobile phone, and walked in the direction of the elevator "Li Yunze, what the hell do you want? Just say it!" Why rather gnash your teeth, "you have not only seriously affected my life, but also affected my work now..." Listening to why Ning''s angry voice, Li Yunze smiled, "I don''t like to hear that." When he arrived at the elevator, he entered the elevator. "First of all, when did I affect your life? Just tell me that I have only seen you several times in the past half a month. It''s very poor... How did it affect you?" "If you see it once, there will be news once. It''s still changing. Can I let you see it?" Why are my teeth itching? "Now you use President Ma''s greed for Huakang pharmaceutical to affect my work..." At this point, he Yining is too angry to say. Li Yunze smiled and didn''t care what he Yining disliked. "I just heard from the little nurse of our hospital that there was a special spicy hot in the snack street. I''ll pick you up later!" "..." he Yining thought he was a chicken and a duck. "I won''t go to eat myself. Do you need to take it?" "Two people eat it." Li Yunze takes it for granted. "I can go with Yan Yan!" "Find yanmiao..." Li Yunze paused, "well, I suddenly found that Shenwai was very busy today. Yanmiao will work overtime later!" "..." he Yining was so angry, "Li Yunze, you did it on purpose!" "Yes, I did it on purpose." Li Yunze smiled a little cheap, a kind of visual sense of "you have the ability to bite me now". He Yining was so angry that he hung up the phone. She found out. When she woke up after the car accident, her world was in chaos. Li Yunze simply tortured her in another way The more angry I was. Originally, she wanted to go a little early and stagger Li Yunze''s sticky spirit. But when she returned, she suddenly sent in a pregnant woman to give birth. She hurried into the operating room When it came out, there was no sun outside, and the sky was gray before nightfall. He Yining just welcomed a newborn and happily forgot the "appointment" with Li Yunze. When I was happy to say goodbye to the medical staff and wanted to leave, suddenly, a bunch of corn lilies was sent to her At the right moment, Li Yunze''s voice with a smile came, "the florist said that corn Lily represents persistent love... Yining, whether it''s you or me, this bunch of flowers can express!" Chapter 1665 No woman can resist flowers, especially those with beautiful meanings. The most important thing is that the men who send flowers at the moment should have a good face, a status, and a special feeling... Well, why do you think it needs to be investigated. "Ha ha!" When he Yining saw Li Yunze, he thought of being cheated by Ma Guangming for personal gain. He had no interest in the beautiful longing for flowers, "persistent love?" Li Yunze nodded, and the smile from the corners of his mouth was evil, charming and gentle in the dim sky. "Li Yunze, I really don''t know. Apart from your medical knowledge, you can also have persistent things..." why did Ning PI laugh at Rou instead of laughing, "then you can be persistent slowly!" She just wanted to lift her feet and suddenly thought of something, "Oh, by the way... You just said something ambiguous. What is it to express you and me?" "Literally." Li Yunze smiled proudly. "I''m really hehe, your face..." he Yining couldn''t stand turning his eyes. "If you stick to you, don''t think I stick to you... Well, that''s it!" He Yining nodded, took back his sight, and wanted to leave without saying anything Unfortunately, he was stopped by Li Yunze. "Your flowers are confiscated." Li Yunze was still smiling. "Don''t accept such a moral!" Why should I be cold. "What do you accept?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows, just like a kind of. You said I''ll turn the flowers in your hand into what you want immediately. Although, impossible! Why is Ning stunned, "you wait." Then she took out her mobile phone in front of Li Yunze, opened the search engine and said solemnly, "yellow rose..." Li Yunze frowned. He was not familiar with flower language. He sent corn lilies because the little girl in the florist asked him who he wanted to send and what he wanted to express. "Dr. he, you''re wrong..." two nurses came out behind and said with a smile, "the yellow rose represents breaking up. Don''t you pierce our hearts?" Li Yunze heard that it meant "breaking up" and immediately sank his face, "why Yining, we''re not in love, but breaking up?" He snorted, "we''re married now... Married, okay?!" "The problem is that you and I are not married because of love, but because of helplessness!" Why would you rather gnash your teeth. "Why do I care about you? Anyway, we are now a legal husband and wife relationship..." Li Yunze is used to playing tricks now. He comes with his mouth open and takes it for granted. The two nurses have been openly "stealing" for a while. Seeing this, they have only one idea That is, the Li Yunze and why Ning Xiu''s love they saw before is false. However, the current situation is that why Ning is still fake, and Li Yunze... Fake and true. In a slight stalemate, he Yining glanced at his mobile phone again, then raised his eyes to Li Yunze and said, "since we are not in love, it is really inappropriate for me to want yellow roses... Then you can send me aster!" "Aster?!" Li Yunze frowned and said coldly, "then did you tell me that the moral of this flower is... Divorce "No!" He Yining looked at Li Yunze and didn''t know why. Anyway, he smiled and said with a little pride, "it''s... Memory!" She raised her eyebrows. "Well, you just regard your love for me as a good memory in your life... Bye!" With that, she had raised her step again, sideways passed Li Yunze''s body and wanted to leave. As he passed Li Yunze, his wrist was suddenly caught by him, and he said with a cold hiss: "recall a wool egg... Haven''t created memory yet. What do you recall?" He said, holding flowers in one hand and he Yining''s wrist in the other. Despite her resistance, he took her to the parking place "Let''s create a memory now, and then I''ll see if I want to recall it later." Li Yunze opened the co pilot''s door and pressed why Ning in. "Li Yunze, you son of a bitch!" He Yining shouted angrily. "I''ll ask Professor Xia Li later if I''m a bastard..." Li Yunze answered like a stream. "..." why did Ning twitch at the corner of his mouth and say angrily, "don''t use uncle li..." "It''s dad!" Li Yunze smiled and raised his eyebrows at he Yining. Seeing her face stiff, he closed the co pilot''s door and went to the driver''s seat. He Yining doesn''t want to talk to Li Yunze anymore. She feels that Li Yunze will not be in the field of medicine in the future and can do the work of playing with his mouth and skin. Looking at the car leaving, the two nurses who had been watching the play before envied and sighed "Alas, as long as I meet someone with such intentions and ordinary conditions, I will marry directly." "Pro, you''re married and have no chance..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The two nurses smiled at each other and left Shuya hospital together. ¡­¡­ Li Yunze took he Yining to snack street. For women, if flowers are one of the irresistible, then... Delicious snacks must be the second irresistible. The newly opened spicy hot shop is in the snack street. With the good taste, the popularity can be imagined. "You line up first..." Li Yunze looked at the flow of people in line and said to he Yining. "What are you doing?" Why Ning asked subconsciously. Li Yunze smiled and felt that such a dialogue was very lovers, and his mood was a lot more comfortable. His voice was unconsciously gentle and spoiled for a few minutes, "go and buy you milk tea." Why Ning turned his head to Li Yunze, and his face was slightly stiff. She doesn''t know whether her heart missed beating because she was spoiled by Li Yunze, or because she thought... Li Yunze is not a man who will buy milk tea?! The girls lined up next to him looked at he Yining with envy. Recently, their affair dominated the headlines in Los Angeles. When they began to stand here, they had attracted a lot of attention. "It''s really sweet..." "Yes, yes!" "Why are such high-quality men owned by others? Alas... If you have face and money, you will spoil women!" "I think it''s a show!" In a pile of beautiful voices, there are always one or two sour and jealous voices. He Yining was already troubled by the recent scandal. He was annoyed to hear these voices. "No matter what those people say? If you can listen to them and enjoy them under praise, you have to bear the slander under the sour taste." Li Yunze said with a smile. Why rather turn over your eyes, "the problem is, I don''t feel enjoyment..." "Silly Ning, you''d better try to accept it." Li Yunze attached himself, "because I won''t let you go if I don''t catch your heart!" Why Ning''s heart suddenly shook, not because Li Yunze didn''t let go, but because of a sentence... Silly Ning! Chapter 1666 The heart beats as if it were beating a drum. That feeling makes why Ning both familiar and strange... It''s like a memory, but there''s no trace. Li Yunze saw why Ning looked dull, smiled and slightly picked his chin, "go forward, there is room in front..." Why should I subconsciously look at the front of me? Sure enough, the team has moved. She pursed the corners of her mouth, looked at Li Yunze, and hurried to move with a red face. Li Yunze smiled at why Yining''s embarrassed appearance. Completely ignoring the discussion and attention of the onlookers, he turned and went to the milk tea shop where he Yining must drink every time he came to the snack street. I don''t know if it''s the reason for the lack of body left by the car accident. Although he Yining doesn''t have a big problem now, he doesn''t grow meat anyway. Li Yunze sighed secretly with milk tea, thinking that he couldn''t use the weight loss meal list in the past before he wrote it. This time, it can be directly changed to conditioning. But he also thought that he Yining would not eat the prepared meal list according to the rules. He simply prepared it for her when she came to Huakang to start communication and learning. The location of Malatang shop is very crowded. Although it is only spring, it is also very stuffy in such a crowded place. "Pack up!" Li Yunze said. He Yining looked inside and nodded. The seller skillfully took the packing box and packed the spicy hot for the two people. After that, Li Yunze took it over, and he Yining, holding milk tea in his hand, turned and left Lovers in love, but so! Although it is the most common, how many men, especially men with status, are willing to do so for women? Li Yunze didn''t bring why Ning home to eat. He drove directly to a small park nearby and found a small pavilion with night lights nearby. The two people ate there. "You should also eat spicy hot..." he Yining said unexpectedly. "Well, someone always eats these, so he eats them." Li Yunze meant something. He Yining frowned, "isn''t someone me?" She said, curling her mouth. "I haven''t eaten with you." Li Yunze looked at why Ning smiled. Although she had forgotten the sweet things with him for the past two months, she was still a little lost. "Have you ever heard of a spicy and hot piece?" Li Yunze ate and smiled a little evil. "What?" He Yining drank milk tea and sighed, "Alas, if only it were ice." "You still eat less ice now..." after Li Yunze said that, he Yining told him the spicy and hot paragraph, and then glanced at the food box. "My price is estimated not to be good for one night, but several nights." Why Ning''s face has become rigid, "Li Yunze," she gnashed her teeth, "you... Get out!" Li Yunze looked at he Yining and smiled. It was a laugh, a hearty smile His family is silly and lovely! Is this beauty in the eye of the beholder? Looking at Li Yunze like this, why would you rather buckle the spicy hot food box directly on his face to vent your anger! But that''s just thinking After all, this person refreshes the lower limit of rogue and nuisance in front of her every day. She does this every day. It is estimated that she has not been killed in a car accident. She must be angry by Li Yunze. Besides, this spicy hot is really delicious... She was so angry that she couldn''t give up! Alas! A foodie, especially one who can''t resist spicy food... Bear it! From time to time, the voice of the park was loud and angry. Xu is that Li Yunze is too rogue, and Xu is that his "noise" is too deep into the hearts of the people. Gradually, why would you rather find... This night seems not lonely. Some things are slowly changing through the air. Why should Ning think that she can''t get rid of the scoundrel Li Yunze? Now she can only face it reluctantly The night in Los Angeles is full of peace under the warmth. At this moment, in the afternoon of Mpumalanga, South Africa, the thick forest blocks the sunshine. Xiao Mu carried her hands and wore loose Tang clothes. She looked at the children who were training. The corners of her mouth were filled with a faint smile after years of experience. Such a smile, kindly, makes strangers feel at ease. "Lord Xiao, the first batch has been screened out." Someone came forward to report. He looked a little dignified and regretted, "almost half of them have been eliminated." "Precision is more important than quantity." Xiao Mu said with a smile, "even if the last one of this batch is not left, it''s OK to find star again." The man grinned and sighed softly. Mr. Xiao spent a lot of money and effort to find the people around star XK hasn''t been so attentive before. Even if Mr. Xiao was adopted by Mr. long when he was very young, he came step by step in XK... Until he took XK. "Times are different..." Xiao Mu seemed to guess the thoughts of the people next to him, and said in a far-reaching voice, "it''s not easy for XK to have such a position today. It''s easy to start a business but difficult to keep it... People in black and white are not very friendly to XK now!" An organization that can catch the lifeblood of others at any time is stuck in the throat when it comes to them. If XK is not powerful, how can it survive in such an "environment"? XK is not strong enough to cover everything, and many people lose every year Xiao Mu''s eyes were a little far-reaching. After a long time, he gradually withdrew his thoughts and said, "star will open up a new XK... I believe!" Then he glanced at the people on one side and smiled. While turning around, he took his mobile phone and dialed a group of numbers. The fashion just put a reagent tube into the freezer. After seeing the call, Junya picked it up with a smile on her genial face, put it on the public, continued to do things in her hand and asked, "master Xiao, you have become a woman every month..." Xiao Mu didn''t mind a man who was only 27 years old and was a child to himself. After all, the world is not age has the final say, but ability. "Only by asking during the period can I show that I attach great importance to it." Xiao Mu also joked. The fashion likes Xiao Mu very much. XK''s words are people. He can put down his airs. Although he asks for him... He feels respect. "How''s star''s medicine?" Xiao Mu asked before waiting for the popular words. The popular glanced at the freezer, kept moving in his hand, and slowly opened his mouth: "the sample is being cultivated, the fastest one month, the slowest..." he paused, "anyway, I''ll give it to you in a year." Xiao Mu smiled and heard the popular saying, "you really value this child..." his eyes flashed a faint smell, "Lord Xiao, why don''t I add something to this medicine?" He grinned and said excitedly, "in this way, if Shi Shaoqin doesn''t want to turn around, everyone will break up in one shot!" Chapter 1667 Hearing the excitement in the popular voice, Xiao Mu frowned with a headache, and his voice was filled with some dissatisfied dignity, "nonsense!" The fashionable man picked up his eyebrow and simply picked up his mobile phone. He leaned on the research platform with a vicious smile on his mouth and said, "how could it be nonsense?" Paused, "although I haven''t had contact with Shi Shaoqin, I know that man is still very ambitious." Xiao Mu naturally knows this. "If he really wants to repent, I don''t think Lord Xiao can do anything?" The fashion smiled, "next time Lord Xiao comes to me, I won''t be interested in cooperation..." This time I will help Xiao Mu. In addition to his attractive conditions, it''s still popular. I''m just interested in that silence. A drug that can be broken down by progesterone hormone, but has both advantages and disadvantages, will have certain side effects on the fetus. He is still very curious Xiao Mu smiled and stepped on the thick fallen leaves. It was soft, but it was as deep and long as Tai Chi. "If I really don''t give it to others, I will naturally have a way to deal with it..." Xiao Mu said casually, "ha ha" smiled. "I suddenly thought, what will be the reaction if star receives XK and hears about you today?" "I don''t know how he will react. I only know that my hand will react if he wants to respond..." the popular shrugged and ignored a child who is more than 20 years younger than himself. "Besides, I have nothing to do with you XK." Xiao Mu smiled and didn''t speak. He just said it casually, while the popularity naturally listened casually. But they wouldn''t think that when they grow up, star will make the fashion so "miserable" after hearing about it! What annoys the popularity most is that he can only suffer dumb losses after being corrected. And that star, who seems to be indifferent to everything, has an innocent look on his face, which makes his teeth itch with hatred, but he has nothing to do with him. It is said that in this world, one thing falls to another. No matter how proud you are of the world, there is always someone who can become the weakness of your life It''s like growing up star to popularity, and it''s like today''s star to Shi Shaoqin. Shi juechi looked at the amusement facilities that had just checked their safety performance and were suitable for children aged two to five, and shook his head with a sigh. Where is mo palace? Is the root of evil in the dark But now, there are large sunflower fields, not to mention, there is also a small amusement park. Whether Shi juexi and others, or the workers of the factory, one by one, or looking at the amusement park from a distance, they feel unspeakable. It''s like there''s no evil here, only peace... Although it''s just an illusion for a moment. But it''s nothing When Shi Shaoqin was pulled into the playground by star, Carney felt that the next scene was really a little spicy. "Stones together..." star tooted his small mouth, twisted his little fat hand and looked at the merry go round. Shi Shaoqin frowned invisibly. He sat on the carousel... It was when nothing had happened. "Stone..." star came forward, pulled Shi Shaoqin''s big hand with his small hand, and looked back at his small face. In that way, he was stubborn under the condition of not agreeing or not compromising. In the end, Shi Shaoqin couldn''t bear star''s unhappiness. Finally, he put him into a small car. With one handsome hand, he grabbed the pole of one side of the Trojan horse, his foot collapsed, and his foot had already thrown his long leg on the Trojan horse. Full of childlike music, under the soft star light, star is very happy. He has been "giggling" and patting his little hand. He slightly lifts his little ass in the car and swings excitedly. Shi Jue Chi smiled in her mouth and looked at Shi Shaoqin. Because she looked at star''s happiness, the corners of her mouth unconsciously made a smile, and her eyes were deep. Star is the sunshine of Shaoqin. Even if... Can''t get out of the darkness, it''s good to always see the light of hope. Thinking, the stone Jue Chi sighed heavily. "Jue Shao seems to have something on his mind?" Kani withdrew his sight from Shi Shaoqin and looked at Shi Jue Chi. Shi juechi didn''t look at him, but looked at Shi Shaoqin and gradually deepened his eyes. "I was wondering if star was finally taken away by XK... Would Shaoqin be too lonely." Carney was silent. Although they do not fully understand XK, they still know the general direction. Since it is to be trained as a successor, the legendary hell forest of near death is the necessary test for star''s growth It is said that the fastest speaker to get out of hell forest was the speaker of the previous generation, which also took several months. XK grew up in the forest, because he grew up in and out of hell. Although these are legends, it can be expected that they will not be too far away Shi juechi and Kani''s faces were a little heavy. They looked at the pure smiling star and suddenly resisted their thoughts. Even they don''t want such a star to suffer, let alone Shi Shaoqin?! ¡­¡­ Li Yunze and he Yining ate spicy hot and cleaned up their lunch boxes. Because they were too full, they took a walk in the park. He sent he Yining home from. "Don''t you call me up?" After arriving at the place, Li Yunze asked with a smile. Why is Ning''s cold "ha" sound, "and then sitting becomes waiting for more time... Then, it''s too late. If you have an operation tomorrow morning, just stay!" "Well, do you know my routine?" Li Yunze laughed. Why would he rather turn his eyes and ignore him? He opened the door directly and got off and left. Li Yunze smiled, put one arm on the steering wheel, opened the window, looked at he Yining''s back and said, "you really guessed wrong today..." when he saw her stop and look back, he smiled and said, "I''m going to the research institute later. Because of my brother''s research, there was a cover up, but the medicine still needs to come out." Why rather slightly sipped the corners of her mouth and nodded after a few seconds, "then don''t be too tired..." Originally, she just thought she should say so politely, but as soon as she spoke, she didn''t know how Li Yunze felt. She felt ambiguous and soft. Li Yunze smiled. He Yining looked embarrassed and nodded with a deeper smile. "Go up, I see you turn on the light and go." Why Ning''s mouth moved back and forth. Finally, he nodded without saying anything and turned to go upstairs. As soon as she entered the door, she turned on the light urgently, and went to the window without changing her shoes. Li Yunze looked at he Yining, his eyes were deep, waved with her, and drove away under her gaze Yining, I am so often "tied" with you. Your subconscious mind is still close to me... Is it?! Chapter 1668 Li Yunze smiled all the way. However, when he arrived at the al Institute, he didn''t know whether it was a coincidence or providence. He happened to hear two female researchers talking about the pharmacology of plants. "Isn''t aster often used to moisten the lungs and lower Qi, eliminate phlegm and cough?!" The woman with a horsetail said, "how come aster was also used in this study." Another short haired woman shrugged, "I don''t know..." paused. She suddenly raised her eyebrow and said, "I''ve had too much contact with plants recently. When I came home, I wanted to study the medicine when I saw any plants, which was rejected by my brother and children." The horsetail girl laughed, The short haired girl reluctantly imitated her niece and said: "My niece taught me like this... Aunt, you are a woman. When you see flowers, shouldn''t you study the flower language first? Why do you always study the medicinal properties? You won''t be able to marry out like this... Look at Grandpa and grandma. Now you are worried about you. You are over 30 years old and hold together with drug research all day!" As soon as the horsetail girl heard this, she immediately smiled and said teasingly, "your niece didn''t teach you flower language or anything? There will be men in the future, so that she can know what the flowers mean..." "Yes!" The short haired woman''s voice was obviously helpless, "the book I took home to read happened to see aster, and she popularized the flower language to me!" Li Yunze stopped and looked at the two people who were talking attentively with their backs to him, waiting Yining said aster is... Memory?! "The flower language of aster is a memory, but there is a very sad and beautiful love story behind it!" The short haired woman said in a soft voice, "it''s said that in order to comfort her lover, the dead man turned into an aster... In this way, the living lover can look at the flowers and immerse himself in beautiful memories and thoughts!" Li Yunze suddenly frowned. He Yining checked the flower language at that time, so... She knew the legend at that time? "God, I''m still immersed in beautiful memories and thoughts!" The horsetail woman rolled her eyes. "Her lover is dead. Isn''t memory painful?" The short haired woman said she couldn''t understand Li Yunze took back his sight and went to the research room without disturbing the two women who were talking. Just as he was walking, he took out his mobile phone and checked the flower language and legend of asters. In addition to what the two women just said, there is another kind... The woman turns into an aster, quietly blooming flowers, waiting for the wandering soul of her lover. Li Yunze stopped slowly, with an ugly face. At that time, he Yining told him what it meant to send aster when he knew two legends? Is to tell him that she was actually "dead" when she was in a car accident?! Therefore, he can only immerse himself in the memories and thoughts of the past, and has nothing to do with her now?! Thinking of this, Li Yunze sent a message to he Yining. He Yining just came out of the bath and was about to blow his hair. The voice of information arrival came from his mobile phone She took it and rowed it away. Seeing that it was Li Yunze''s hair, she frowned slightly and opened it: he Yining, you are my li Yunze''s person in your life, and your death is my li Yunze''s ghost... You want to leave me to wander and dream! "..." why do you prefer the corners of your mouth? "What''s the nerve Then she slid her finger on the screen and returned a message: in the middle of the night, please be quiet! ¡°¡­¡­¡± Now, the words were so fierce that Yunze was speechless and choked. Time, at its unique speed, pushes forward Li Yunze and he Yining went to the snack street to eat spicy hot, ambiguous and warm interaction, which made headlines again. For this, why rather have been too lazy to pay attention to, because it is useless Besides, Li can go there for three minutes. They both have to study together. If she takes care of everyone and doesn''t have to study, she may get irritability. But he Yining was wrong this time Two months have passed since she started studying in Huakang. Let alone the headlines, there has been no news about her and Li Yunze in Huakang in the media. "Yan Yan, do you think Li Yunze is getting more and more strange recently?" He Yining put down the plate and sat down. "What do you think he wants?" Yan Miao looked at he Yining and said with a smile, "I want to be nice to you!" Then she looked at he Yining''s plate, "look at you, because you have eaten in the canteen, our working meals have become full of tricks." Why would you rather turn your mouth. "Although Huakang''s working meal has always been the best in major hospitals, when can there be such a nutritional match? Even our hospital nutritionists feel impeccable?" "Li Ze and yunmiao are really satisfied." "Huh?" Why Ning opened his mouth slightly and couldn''t respond to the speed of yanmiao changing the topic. "Li Yunze doesn''t know anything in the medical field. If you have to say, it''s Gynecology..." yanmiao said with a smile, "you just made up for it!" He Yining said, "I chose gynecology because I like to see the birth of a little life, not because of him." "Eh?" Yan Miao looked at he Yining with a teasing smile. "I didn''t say you were because of him!" "..." why is Ning stunned? Then, when yanmiao''s smile deepened, he stared discontentedly. Why rather eat the food under the meal list updated by Li Yunze every day and look out of the window slightly In a twinkling of an eye, it''s summer Different from the heat outside, the indoor temperature is the most suitable temperature, which always makes people forget that it is summer now. It has been more than four months since Li Yunze suddenly said love after waking up As if, thinking quietly, all the memories of this period of time can be left are related to Li Yunze. Slightly frowned, why would you rather eat something in your mouth. Yan Miao looked at he Yining who was thoughtful and didn''t bother her. Because of understanding and company, although she occasionally assists Li Yunze, she still likes everything Li Yunze does now Yining used to love too hard. She should enjoy being loved, shouldn''t she?! After eating, he Yining and yanmiao went back to their respective departments "Doctor he," said a nurse with a smile, "Li Shao asks you to go up and find him." "..." he Yining looked at the ambiguous smile on the nurse''s face and sighed secretly. There is a man chasing you, who is always pretending to be public and private to you... What should I do? Ask for the answer... Very urgent, online and so on! Chapter 1669 He Yining went to Li Yunze''s office and felt everyone''s ambiguous eyes when passing the nurse station... She said in her heart that she was a little helpless. "Dong Dong!" "Come in..." He Yining involuntarily took a deep breath before he opened the door of the office and went in. "Li Shao, are you looking for me?" Li Yunze is used to why he Yining has a clear distinction between public and private. "Sit down." He Yining walked over and sat down. He saw Li Yunze writing a medical case and didn''t speak any more. He just looked at him suspiciously. After Li Yunze wrote the medical record in his hand, he closed it and put it aside. At the same time, he looked up. "There will be a heart operation the day after tomorrow. Are you interested in participating?" He Yining frowned, "I''ve been in obstetrics and gynecology for three or four years. What I can do most now is to cut my stomach..." "..." Li Yunze was stunned and then smiled, "this operation is the case you mentioned the other day. Are you not interested?" Why Ning frowned slightly and suddenly remembered that she had dinner with Li Yunze before. She happened to see a news about a foreign heart surgery case. She also asked him curiously, what would he do if he had the same operation? "I can watch it in the observation room." "Be my deputy!" Li Yunze said directly, "how can the observation be better than the actual operation?" "I''ll be your deputy?!" He Yining stared in surprise, "aren''t you afraid of any problems in the operation?" Li Yunze looked at he Yining and didn''t answer. Because he forgot his love for him, Yining either forgot or found a reasonable explanation for all the things he had done under his persistence And she could help him finish the operation under her instinctive reaction, which is not in her memory now. "I''d better go to the observation room!" He Yining thought for a while and said seriously, "no matter you or me, no matter what we do privately, I think in the profession of doctor, we need to be responsible for patients." Li Yunze''s mouth was filled with his stupidity... Whether he remembered his love for him or not, his sense of responsibility was never less. "Since I can let you be my deputy, I''m sure of the operation." Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "You don''t think I ignore the patient''s life in order to chase you?" "Did you get there..." why would you rather take it. "It''s so decided. I''ll sort out the patient information and some items needing attention during the operation later. You can have a look in advance." Li Yunze raised his eyebrows, which was a positive sentence, but he was obviously asking why he Yining. He Yining pondered and finally nodded, "OK..." after a pause, she got up, "then I''ll go back to obstetrics and Gynecology first." With that, she wanted to turn around and leave. In fact, when he came, he Yining thought that Li Yunze was using public affairs for personal gain. Although it''s a little selfish to let her participate in the operation, it''s mainly business... This makes he Yining a little surprised. Unfortunately, before the thought stopped, she found that she thought too much. "Yining..." Li Yunze''s voice came from behind. Why would he rather stop and look back at him? He had changed his face. Well, it''s the most common kind of cheekiness since she woke up. "Don''t slip away after work this afternoon..." Li Yunze got up and walked towards he Yining. Seeing her subconsciously retreating, he approached with a bad heart until he forced her against the door. "I''ll take you to dinner in the evening." "Ha ha..." he Yining tried to lean against the door and tried to keep a distance from Li Yunze. "We have met every day. After work, just think I beg you and give me some private space!" "Not today!" Li Yunze''s face is close. Why should he be calm. He Yining''s face is tangled and deviates from his face to avoid, although he knows that there is no place to hide. Such a door knocks... She can''t stand it! Oh, my God! I don''t know if Li Yunze has been pestering her recently. Why is he so close to her that her heartbeat seems to be about to have a heart attack?! Not the next second. She''s going to go into shock because her heart beats too fast. Let''s send her directly to the operating room?! "Li... Li Yunze... You first... Start first..." he Yining''s voice was intermittent because his heart beat faster. Her hands were against Li Yunze''s chest, and her face gradually turned red. Just because Li Yunze is almost close, she can feel the arrogance full of masculinity from him... And such arrogance, she has some subconscious expectations?! What the hell is this expectation?! "You''re off work..." Li Yunze didn''t move away, but his face was closer and his voice became enchanted. "Do you want to go with me and go to dinner?" "Ah?!" He Yining''s mood has been confused. When Li Yunze was just talking, it seemed as if his lips touched the hairs on his cheek, which made her breath crazy Such a feeling makes her whole person unable to speak clearly. It seems to want to be close, but it seems to be afraid to be close. Li Yunze felt why he Ning was confused and confused, and a shallow smile crossed his eyes. It''s not without any effect these days, is it? Lips, tentatively, why should the corners of the mouth fall gently He Yining''s body suddenly stiffened and forgot the reaction. Obviously, both of them have children, but why can Li Yunze kiss the corner of her mouth now, and she can feel the current rush to her forehead in an instant?! I didn''t feel he Yining''s resistance, although she forgot to think Li Yunze gently opened the lips of he Yining with the tip of his tongue, and then drove straight into... It was like a long drought with showers. He was only a tentative taste, but it turned into a crazy absorption. Why Ning Mumu, staring at the face close at hand, intoxicated by kissing her Seriously, the picture at the moment is a little strange! The infatuation of a kiss, and the one who was too frightened to respond... Until he Yining suddenly pushed Li Yunze away when he had to stop thinking because of his poor breathing. She looked at Li Yunze with shame, embarrassment and anger. Seeing the evil smile at the corner of his mouth, she said angrily, "Li Yunze, you bastard!" "Asshole?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "Yes!" Why rather stared and confronted him with his eyes. Li Yunze nodded slightly, "OK, I''m an asshole..." he seemed to have a murmur. Just when he was wringing his eyebrows, a more and more bad smile appeared at the bottom of his eyes and said faintly, "anyway, they''re all assholes. It''s better to do something asshole!" "You want to..." Chapter 1670 He Yining was swept by Li Yunze''s crazy lips without asking the exit. She didn''t even have time to resist, so she was kissed by him and completely lost her ability to think about herself Different from the uncontrollable under the first test, this time, Li Yunze directly stirred all the beauty of he Yining, so that she could only immerse herself in the world he gave her. Gradually, why should Ning''s rigid body be soft because of Li Yunze''s overbearing kiss Although the desire for softness and softness is gradually forgotten, some will not forget the desire for softness and softness of the body. "Dong Dong!" The knock on the door suddenly came out of place. Li Yunze didn''t let go of he Yining, and he Yining has completely lost his thinking ability "Eh, isn''t Li Shao in the office?" There was a light sound from outside. "Should be there?!" Someone answered the question, "I don''t see what Li Shao is doing?!" "No one answered when knocking..." the first speaker paused, knocked again, and increased his strength, "didn''t you hear me?!" He Yining suddenly woke up because of the aggravating knock on the door. Her pupils widened and looked at the selfless Li Yunze who was still kissing, trying to push him away. Li Yunze let go of he Yining''s lips. Unfortunately, he didn''t intend to leave. He just whispered in her ear, "guess... What would she think if I let someone in now?" He Yining expanded and bit his teeth in pain and contraction. She didn''t pay attention to knocking before, but now she opens the door again. She will think more... A man and a woman in the room are clearly there, but they don''t open the door. What to do is self-evident Besides, they are really doing something indescribable. At the thought of this, why did Ning angrily step on Li Yunze''s foot and try to push him away, but he couldn''t. "Get out of the way first!" Why rather bite your teeth and whisper. "Don''t let go!" Li Yunze plays rogue. Why would you rather turn your eyes and listen to someone outside saying, "Li Shao should be inside?" The man paused. "Doctor he came to see Li Shao before. I didn''t see two people coming out?!" "Oh..." There were two sudden sounds that came out of tune. Just as he Yining frowned, someone said with a smile: "tut Tut, the fierce young man is light and vigorous, and Dr. he is beautiful... Originally, the two were just exchanging feelings on their lips, but who knows... They think this is not deep enough, so they can only have a deep exchange." "Ha ha, I guess it''s almost the same!" "I see..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± The voices of several people gradually went away, and the people in the office couldn''t hear what they said. Why is Ning''s face red with shame? She vigorously pushed Li Yunze away and stared at him angrily, "what''s the meaning of letting them in? Now it''s clear that she won''t let them in and think more!" Li Yunze shrugged and looked like he couldn''t control. "In fact, they don''t think much..." he hooked up the corner of his mouth and said with a smile, "we were the first to exchange feelings on our lips!" As he said that, he also crossed he Yining''s mouth with hot eyes. He Yining was so angry that he glared at Li Yunze, turned around and put his hand on the doorknob to leave "You go out now and absolutely confirm what they think. We have just finished our deep communication!" Li Yunze''s voice came with a smile. He Yining stared back and sneered, "anyway, I''m going to be thought more. What am I afraid of?" Then she opened the door and left. Li Yunze stood still, but his smile grew deeper and deeper. His silly Ning, didn''t think about it. Why didn''t you resist his kiss?! He Yining didn''t think about it at the moment, but when she returned to the Department, the feeling of Li Yunze''s breath left on her lips made her frown slightly Why did Li Yunze''s close proximity and such a deep kiss, even if she didn''t resist, still indulge in greed? It can''t be said that she doesn''t have a man, so a hungry wolf is like a tiger?! As soon as Jane Mo entered the obstetrician and gynecologist''s office, she saw why Ning had a dull and thoughtful look. The corners of her mouth smiled and sat down on one side, "what are you thinking? So distracted..." "Huh?!" Why should Ning suddenly return to his mind? His eyes first looked at the sword eyebrow dully, and then completely returned to his mind, "come and take preventive shots?!" "Yes." Jane Mo smiled and nodded, "just finished, I''ll come and see you." He Yining looked at the little princess held by Jane mo. the little princess has been for more than four months. The longer it is, the softer it is. It''s very cute. "Alas, seeing Yan Yan like this, I thought of when I was a child..." why Ning sighed and said suddenly with a little melancholy, "I feel a little sorry for her." "Oh?" Jane Mo said softly. "You said that although Li Yunze and I are married, they have always been abroad because of our relationship. It''s very poor to think about it." He Yining sighed. Jane Mo smiled at the corners of her mouth. "Then you accept Yunze. How good is the family?" He Yining frowned slightly at the sight of Jian Mo, "but..." "When I married the general manager of our family, I didn''t have feelings?" Jane Mo said with a smile, "you and Yunze, at least Yunze has feelings for you, and there are one." He Yining''s face is a little loose. Jane Mo doesn''t think the same as Gu Beichen. She likes to see everyone happy now. Moreover, she felt that Yining had worked hard before, but Yunze didn''t have to chase back to reflect love... Two people together is the real love. "Together with Yunze, Yining, you don''t lose." Jane Mo said something meaningful. Why is Ning Xin a little confused? She doesn''t know whether it''s because of Li Yunze''s kiss just now or Jian Mo''s words at this moment. "Yining, don''t wait for regrets in life, we will look back and regret." Jane Mo looked down at the little princess sleeping, and thought of the way she just cried when she was injected, and the smile of maternal love filled the corners of her mouth. "Sometimes we just try a little less, and the result is different." Even though it has been so long When Jane Mo occasionally thinks of Mo palace, she will also think that if she changed her treatment that night, would Xiao Yan still be alive?! ¡­¡­ "Boom... Pop!" On the seashore of Monterey in the United States, after deep midnight, colorful fireworks bloomed in the sky, igniting the whole ink sky. Star happily clapped his hands on the beach, bouncing, and looked at Shi Shaoqin from time to time. His little face was completely satisfied. Shi Shaoqin looked at the pure smile on star''s face, and his eyes gradually deepened I''m going to take star to inject some drugs to dissolve silence tomorrow He didn''t know whether the medicine had any effect, but he wanted star to choose his own way in a life with memory. Chapter 1671 It''s a lie to say you don''t worry at all. Is the drug used to dissolve silence useful to star, or does it have side effects? The name of ghost doctor is just a legend. Moreover, after all these years, no one knows whether the apprentice of the ghost doctor can inherit his ability. Shi Shaoqin sighed and walked up to star. "Stone, look..." star saw Shi Shaoqin come over, tied with blue agate, pointing to the fireworks in the sky, grinning, "how beautiful!" When he said these three words, he also lit his eyes and nodded, adding to his affirmation of "how beautiful". Shi Shaoqin nodded with a smile and looked up at the ink space... At the right time, fireworks bloomed again, making the whole night bright. Taking back his sight, Shi Shaoqin squatted down and said, "it''s late. It''s time to go to bed." Star slightly tooted his mouth and looked at the fireworks. His face was obviously reluctant to give up. Shi Shaoqin did not compromise, but shook his head. Star shrunk his mouth and was a little unhappy, but he still nodded... His small appearance was obviously filled with resentment. Shi Shaoqin smiled at the corner of his beautiful mouth, picked up star and walked to the seaside villa This beach was bought by star after he woke up. Occasionally, he would bring the little guy to stay for a few days. Because he had an appointment with Xiao Mu in San Francisco, he simply brought star in advance. I don''t know what will happen tomorrow. Even if it''s him, he can''t control it all... There''s a fireworks tonight. A fireworks, which is clearly night, but can be bright and colorful. After Shi Shaoqin washed star, the little guy was obviously weak because he was too excited before, so he put him in bed. After a while, he had fallen asleep. Shi Shaoqin stood by the bed and quietly looked at the exquisite little face. His eyes gradually became deep. "Maybe you don''t want to be strong," Shi Shaoqin''s quiet words echoed in the dimly lit room, "but when you were in Mo''er''s stomach, Xu has doomed your extraordinary life." Shi Shaoqin slowly sat down by the bed and his eyes fell on the blue agate on star''s wrist. For a long time, he stretched out his hand... Gently rubbed the handmade blue agate with his fingers. "Once, I wanted Gu Beichen..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice, inexplicably infected with a layer of indifference under solitude, "I think such a clean and beautiful person should be destroyed!" He sank his eyes slightly. "After all, I was destroyed... Wasn''t it?" Self mockery crossed the corners of Shi Shaoqin''s mouth, and then spread more self mockery in the bottom of his eyes. He thought it was ridiculous to say this to a sleeping child But after tomorrow, who knows what it will be like?! "Later, even if he did not completely fall into darkness, he would never see the sun again." Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes and smiled. What crossed his mind was Gu Beichen''s three months in the Mo palace and his fallen days in Britain. "But in the end, he has a responsibility..." he looked up at Star youyou and said, "although he has a very useless father and some selfish mother, he has the best grandparents in the world." At the bottom of Shi Shaoqin''s eyes, he felt a touch of envy under sadness uncontrollably. "No matter at any time, they all support but don''t spoil Gu Beichen. That''s why... Even in the dark, he can still meet a Jian mo." When the words fell, Shi Shaoqin''s envy increased a bit. If he and juechi had such a pair of relatives, even after his accident, even when juechi had a heart attack... Would everything later be different? "I want to pull Gu Beichen into the darkness. It''s better to say... I envy him!" It is too difficult for Shi Shaoqin to say the word "envy"! But at this moment, when the surrounding air became lonely, he seemed to be able to admit... But admit that all loneliness was mocking him. Because no matter how hard he wants, he can''t catch what he wants in the end. Time seemed to stand still. After a long time, Shi Shaoqin continued: "when he began to contact Jian Mo, it was just because he wanted to pull Gu Beichen into the dark again." He looked up and fell out of the window, "but later, I found that I didn''t think so... Because I began to yearn for the dawn after the dark night." Shi Shaoqin unconsciously spilled a smile from the corner of his mouth. It was very shallow and almost invisible... But it softened the night. "She is very stubborn and reminds me all the time that she only loves Gu Beichen..." Shi Shaoqin said, looking at moye''s eyes deeper and deeper. "She is also very persistent. It seems that no one can change her." For example, the love for Gu Beichen... That is her stubbornness and persistence. "I hate her like this, because it will make me more jealous and envious of Gu Beichen!" Shi Shaoqin gently fanned his eyes. The eyes that had been looking at the ink night and had lost their sight suddenly gathered, "what can I do? Some things are doomed to have no ending..." Shi Shaoqin sighed and looked back at star. There is a shallow smile on the sleeping face. Even if he wakes up tomorrow, today''s happy memory is gone... But star has the toughness of Gu Beichen and Jian Mo in his body. He can always find happiness quickly. Raise your hand and gently stroke your fingers across star''s cheek. The soft little face feels so comfortable that people can''t help touching it more. Shi Shaoqin smiled, laughing from his heart, without any impurities... It''s like he''s just a child who hasn''t been polluted by the world. "Star, you are the child of Gu Beichen and Jian mo. you have everything they have. Life is yours..." Shi Shaoqin''s voice is long and ethereal. "As long as you want, the world will be yours!" The next day in San Francisco, it was drizzling. The car drove slowly across the Golden Gate Bridge and finally stopped at a cafe full of style. Shi Shaoqin glanced at the cafe, his eyes deep, "you wait here." The driver and Qingqing looked at each other and frowned at the back seat. Shi Shaoqin ignored them, just got out of the car with star and stepped into the cafe with steady steps. Not surprisingly, the cafe was chartered. Xiao Mu sat in an excellent place and looked at the drizzling city outside, with a smile in his mouth That kind of smile, in the eyes of strangers, is full of kindness and closeness. "Master Xiao, Shi Shaoqin has arrived." Someone came up and said. Xiao Mu calmly takes back his sight and looks at Shi Shaoqin who comes over with star in his arms. It''s hard to hide his smile And this smile is because his sight falls on star! Chapter 1672 Shi Shaoqin slightly sinks his face. He doesn''t like Xiao Mu looking at star like a prey. Xiao Mu completely ignores Shi Shaoqin''s warning. Looking at star, his smile deepens. "Alas," said Xiao Mu with a sudden sigh, "seriously, the best person I''ve ever seen is the dragon family... Unfortunately, I can''t think about it overnight except for the dragon family''s own willingness." As he spoke, his smile widened, looked at the people next to him, took Shi Shaoqin directly as the air and continued: "I knew Gu Beichen came out of the Mo palace. I paid special attention and thought it was very good to inherit XK... But I didn''t expect that star was the more satisfactory candidate for me." Xiao Mu looked back at Shi Shaoqin, whose face was more heavy, and said, "I owe it to Gu Beichen. Tell me about him. If he didn''t play tricks with me, how could I wait for something better?" "Hum!" Shi Shaoqin snorted coldly. Xiao Mu didn''t mind his attitude. After all, he wanted Shi Shaoqin to be kind at the moment. If Shi Shaoqin could be indifferent, he wouldn''t have to spend so much effort. "So, it''s cause and effect, destiny... It''s quite reasonable." Xiao Mu''s vision is opposite to star. Shi Shaoqin gave another cold hum, with a sarcastic voice spilling over his beautiful lips, "master Xiao is so pretentious, which really makes people uncomfortable." "Ha ha!" Xiao Mu said with a smile, "people will be more hypocritical when they are old... Normal." Shi Shaoqin didn''t answer. He just looked at star and asked, "a cappuccino cake?" "OK..." soft Nuo answered with a smile, and then looked at Xiao Mu opposite. The bottom of star''s eyes is clear. Although he doesn''t remember Xiao Mu at all because of the refresh of his memory... However, instinctively, there is a dislike in the little guy''s eyes. Xiao Mu frowned invisibly, then smiled and asked, "do you want another milk pudding?" "No!" Star refused immediately. He didn''t even think about it. He didn''t give any kindness. Xiao Mu was stunned, then smiled and asked, "don''t you like milk? Caramel, mango, blueberry... The pudding here is very delicious!" "No!" Star said proudly. "..." Xiao Mu frowned, "why?" "Because it''s not a stone." Star''s voice is clear and crisp, with some small complacency under dependence. "..." Xiao Mu took a breath from the corner of his mouth and said... He was a little dissatisfied that star could still rely on Shi Shaoqin for refreshing his memory every day. Well, he won''t admit to being jealous. "Would you like another milk pudding?" Shi Shaoqin asked star calmly at the right time. Star immediately brightened his eyes and nodded to Shi Shaoqin, "yes!" Different from the little arrogance towards Xiao dusk, the star looking forward to now is the right way for children to open. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes flashed across Xiao Mu. Looking at his gloomy face, there was a smile at the bottom of his eyes. The people around Xiao Mu looked at the two men of the moment. Because a star became so childish, he wanted to laugh, but he didn''t dare... He was about to hold back his internal injury. "Where''s the medicine?" When Shi Shaoqin saw that star was happy to eat, he took back his gentle eyes and fell on Xiao Mu. It was already cold. "I''ll take star for three days." Xiao Mu spoke faintly. Shi Shaoqin immediately frowned and didn''t speak, but the smell of rejection was already obvious. "First, it takes three days for the drug to dissolve the blood." Xiao Mu didn''t mean to explain, "secondly, the other party doesn''t want to have direct contact with you." Shi Shaoqin still didn''t speak. Xiao Mu smiled with an easy-going smile. "Shi Shaoqin, if I really want to take star, don''t say you. Even if you take the whole Mo palace as a precaution, it won''t work." His arrogant words showed arrogance, but Shi Shaoqin couldn''t refute them. Because he knows very well that XK has this ability. "Don''t worry, I''ll give you the time I promised you..." Xiao Mu said with a smile. "When should I take star away? I won''t break my promise." "Oh!" Shi Shaoqin sneered, "that''s because... Instead of cultivating star into a cold-blooded character, let me cultivate my character." Xiao Mu raised her eyebrows and didn''t refute. People in his position no longer need to cover up their actions with false words. Because even if the other party hates his behavior after knowing it, he has nothing to do with him. Star was taken away. Before leaving, he grabbed Shi Shaoqin''s hand and looked unwilling. After Shi Shaoqin said a lot of promises, under his eyes that star can definitely believe that he won''t cheat him, the little guy was taken away by Xiao Mu. Looking at the car far away, Shi Shaoqin stood under the eaves of the cafe and watched... Until the car disappeared, he didn''t look back. Qingqing got out of the car, looked at the direction Xiao Mu left, then looked at Shi Shaoqin and said, "Qin Shao, shall we wait in San Francisco?" "Back to the ink palace." After Shi Shaoqin spoke faintly, he took back his sight and got into the car. On the way back, the car was depressed. Shi Shaoqin looked out of the window at the city fogged by the drizzle, which was full of depression. Three days These three days will be sleepless days and nights and helpless waiting. ¡­¡­ Huakang hospital. Li Yunze has rarely entered the operating room since he began to do research, except for large-scale surgery. Although the final research was successful, he Yining had a car accident and Li Yunze was busy chasing his wife after waking up... He has been on the road of "not doing business" and has gone farther and farther. Today''s heart surgery can''t be said to be a large-scale operation, but Li Yunze still has to operate in person because there are many technical things involved. "I don''t understand. Why should a doctor of Obstetrics and Gynecology enter the operating room to be deputy to Li Shao? Just because she is Li Shao''s wife?" There are other hospitals who make complaints about the chest and lung surgeons who are not satisfied with the exchange. "You said," the doctors of Hua Kang are all familiar with the surgery. " "OK, what''s the best way to make complaints about it?" A doctor said, "three years ago, Dr. Lin''s operation was carried out with the cooperation of Dr. he and Li Shao... It should be a problem of ability?!" "She didn''t transfer to obstetrics and gynecology at that time!" The doctor of Tucao said, "now it has been three years since I transferred to the Department of Obstetrics and gynecology. Can I still make complaints about the operation on the heart?" "Yes, I''m also curious..." a doctor joined the discussion. "This department of Obstetrics and Gynecology and Cardiology... Is still very different. It''s been several years." "Doctor he''s technology seems to be OK." A doctor of the general manager of the army spoke at the right time, "the old stubborn Lin in our hospital opposed the operation before, but later, after the operation, they praised Dr. he one by one." Make complaints about the operation. The general manager''s doctor shrugged, "I can''t say technically. After all, I haven''t seen the operation, but... I heard that what doctor he is most powerful is that he can cooperate with Li Shao. That''s the cooperation under the instinctive reaction, which can''t be compared by others." "What do you mean?" "I also heard of gossip..." said the chief doctor of the army. "Dr. he has loved Li Shao for more than ten or twenty years and is so familiar with Li Shao that everything is an instinctive reaction." He Yining suddenly stopped, looked at the profile of the chief military doctor, and was stunned Chapter 1673 He Yining gradually frowned, and his eyes fell on the general doctor of the army. His eyes were completely confused. How is that possible? She has known Li Yunze for more than ten or twenty years, but when did she like him for so long? Moreover, even if you like it, you can''t be persistent to a person from small to large?! Besides... If she really likes Li Yunze, Li Yunze seems to like her now. Shouldn''t they live together and fly together?! The more you think about it, the more you can''t figure it out. The most important thing is Why didn''t she remember the operation that the chief military doctor said? He Yining wondered. Several doctors over there were still chatting. "Isn''t that right?!" Some people immediately looked at the people around them in doubt, "I haven''t read the recent reports. They all say that Li Shao likes Dr. he?!" "Yes, and no one broke the news that the two people proposed from the Department of medicine of Luoda to live together later..." "No, it''s a licensed marriage!" Someone corrected it. "Oh, yes, it''s revealed that they have obtained the certificate..." the man continued, "it''s all because of research and fear that others will find out that the two people are acting, so they made a full set. Then, who knows that doctor he adheres to the attitude of acting, but Li Shao pretended to do it?" "I know about the proposal. I happened to be in graduate school at that time." A doctor said, "whether it''s true or not, it''s romantic. Especially when we are doctors, we really feel it." "What kind?" Someone was curious, "we just heard that because there was no news of the real hammer, it seemed that people from the Department of medicine of Luoda saw it..." The graduate student of Luoyang University nodded, "anyway, Li Shao prepared in advance, and Dr. he didn''t know... When they proposed, they testified with the oath of ''Hippocrates'' and the people of the medical school. Li Shao gave Dr. he a ring engraved with'' 1 + 1 = 1 ''." "Why do you listen so casually and feel so romantic?" "Yes!" "In fact, you don''t know that this is engraved in the ring... I still overheard what the professor said." The doctor who studied in Luoyang University said, "combined with the exposure of Li Shao and Dr. he''s children one by one, I think Li Shao is really very attentive." "Yes, father and mother are equal to children one by one..." The graduate student at Luoyang University smiled and raised his eyebrows. "The most important thing is that the ''+'' number is red!" Now, everyone reacted at once. "That''s really too hard." "After all, Dr. Li Shao and Dr. he are both doctors," said the of the military general hospital Paused, "so, what''s the truth now?" It was originally why someone could make complaints about surgery, but finally, because of gossip, everyone was in the opposite direction. No matter what I heard or saw today''s report, I can''t say what the relationship between Li Yunze and he Yining is. Why did Ning zhe lower the corner of his mouth, turn around silently, push the door and go in when passing the stairs. Her mind is so confused at the moment. She doesn''t know how to clear her mind. She didn''t remember what those people said, but when they said it, she seemed to throb. Is there any?! Just thinking, the mobile phone ring suddenly came, and he Yining was as surprised as a thief. His heart suddenly trembled. Take a deep breath. He Yining takes out his mobile phone. Seeing that it''s Li Yunze, he subconsciously hangs up. Li Yunze frowned slightly, explained a few words to the doctor on one side, and dialed he Yining''s phone again. Why did Ning calm down and grinned secretly. He felt that he was really guilty of being a thief. He hardened his head and answered the phone, "just accidentally slipped his hand and pressed it wrong..." "Well, there is no silver three hundred Liang here." Li Yunze spoke faintly. "..." why did Ning pull down the corner of his mouth, turn his mouth and stop talking. "Where are the people?" Li Yunze asked, "you''re about to enter the operating room. Don''t you come and prepare?" Why was Ning stunned and suddenly remembered that she was going to prepare for surgery... But she forgot because she heard the gossip of those people! Secretly grinned and despised himself. Why should I hasten to answer, "I''ll be right there." "Yes." As soon as Li Yunze answered, the voice of hanging up came from the phone. With a bang, the operating room, machines and operating lights were turned on. The anesthesiologist has finished the anesthesia. Li Yunze, he Yining and others disinfected in. A nurse put on surgical clothes and gloves for them. Everyone is in place. The observation room has been crowded with many people to observe the operation. Some people can''t see it from the observation window, so they just surround the monitor Li Yunze took a look at why Yining, but only one, took back his sight and said faintly: "the operation begins..." As his words fell, all personnel began to operate in their own positions. For Li Yunze, as long as it is technical, he has not failed at any time so far. With enough experience, skillful technique and natural talent, he is destined to shine in the medical field. He Yining was brought into the atmosphere of surgery. From the beginning, Li Yunze would say one or two words. Later, they didn''t need any words at all, as if they were one person, and the cooperation was seamless. "Oh, my God!" Someone in the observation room exclaimed, "I can''t believe it if I didn''t see it with my own eyes... It''s too powerful." "Yes, I don''t need to say anything at all. Doctor he knows what tools to give him and what to do with him..." The voice of exclamation echoed in the observation room with disbelief. The general doctor of the army and the two people who were studying at Luoyang university had heard some "inside stories" and could not help admiring them. "How familiar is it to achieve such cooperation?" The chief military doctor sighed. After the graduate student of Luoda took a look at her, his sight fell in the operating room again, "I''m afraid this is not just familiar, but can be done." exactly. Such cooperation is only familiar, and how to do it? Only when a person takes everything as a part of his body, can he make the fastest response to his body under the instinctive reaction... Isn''t it?! The success of the operation on schedule was more than half an hour shorter than the operation time estimated by several people who knew the inside story. At the end of the operation, everyone knows how to save such time. "Dr. Li does sutures." Li Yunze explained. The man who was called to be Dr. Li answered, took over the suture tools handed over by the instrument nurse and began to suture. After he Yining subconsciously withdrew from the position, she was stunned there. Until she felt Li Yunze''s sight, she looked at it a little numbly At the right moment, her breathing suddenly became short. Chapter 1674 Li Yunze just looked at he Yining quietly. He knew that her heart was a little confused. Why Ning hurriedly took back his sight, said nothing, and hurried out of the operating room... Because he acted so fast, he almost bumped into the nurse who just came in. Standing on the roof of Huakang hospital, why Ning breathed so much that she was flustered and at a loss. What''s going on? Why can Yunze even cooperate with her instinct? If we say now that she and Li Yunze are nothing, she can''t convince herself. There was a sound of footsteps behind him. Why should Ning subconsciously look back and see Li Yunze walking over with two drinks in his hand. "Here!" Li Yunze handed him Yining a cup. Seeing that she didn''t respond, he raised his eyebrow and motioned. Why did Ning zhe take it from the corner of his mouth, take back his sight, look ahead and drink... It was milk tea. "In a twinkling of an eye, it''s summer again..." Li Yunze narrowed his eyes and put his coffee on the table. His eyes became far-reaching. "I remember seeing you in Shuya after you came back from the East China Sea one by one... Now I want to come, everything seems to be the same as yesterday." He Yining didn''t answer, but just listened quietly. "Yining, in fact, what the past is like, it''s just the past..." Li Yunze looked at he Yining. "We can look forward to our future life, can''t we?" He Yining didn''t know whether it was because he was upset, so he couldn''t help looking at him now. "Instead of struggling with the past, it''s better to focus on the next minute." Li Yunze smiled, picked up his coffee and drank it. Then he leaned slightly on the railing. "The sunshine and years are very good. There are you and one by one... Well, if there are two, two, three or three in the future, it will be more perfect." He Yining just wanted to refute who has two or three with you, but when he came to his mouth, he suddenly choked and couldn''t say it. I don''t know why, she even feels that the so-called "two, three, three" is very familiar?! Li Yunze looked at he Yining. He was confused and looked a little dull. He smiled and didn''t say anything. He just drank coffee and his sight fell in the distance He didn''t want Yining to remember the past as much as others guessed, as long as her heart began to move for him. It''s too tired to love for 20 years. Let her have a rest for the rest of her life... He''d better be the one who loves more. ¡­¡­ Book bar. Yan Miao looked at why Yining. If he thought about it, he frowned slightly. "Yining, what are you thinking?" Why should Ning suddenly return to his mind, look around, twist his eyebrows and ask, "Yan Yan, can you tell me the truth?" "Huh?" Yan Miao frowned when he Yining looked tangled. Why Ning drooped his eyes, as if he had endured some emotion, raised his eyes and looked at yanmiao, "did I ever love Li Yunze very much?" "......." yanmiao took a puff from the corner of his mouth, "why do you ask?" "Before the operation this morning, I heard something that didn''t accord with my memory and recent reports..." why did Ning take a deep breath, some drooped his shoulders, "and I''m too familiar with Li Yunze''s operation, which is a tacit understanding under my instinctive reaction." Yan Miao looked at he Yining. After a while, he said slowly, "Yining, there are some things that need to be discovered by yourself. What others say is always what others say... True or false. Who knows who says what you want in your heart?" "What do you mean?" He Yining was at a loss. "For example, if you have no feelings for Li Yunze, even if people all over the world say you once loved him deeply, do you believe it?" Yan Miao saw why Ning subconsciously shook his head and then said, "but if you are attracted to him now, even if someone casually says that you and she are in love, you will believe it." Why did Ning zhe lower the corner of his mouth and think about it? He felt that yanmiao''s words were reasonable. But in the twinkling of an eye, she found that... She wanted to know if it was Aili Yunze so much that she had a little nervous expectation in her heart. He Yining looked at the time. "Well, I suddenly thought about the starting point. I''ll go first." "Huh?" Yan Miao twisted her eyebrows. He Yining didn''t say anything, just waved his hand. People have published books. If I remember correctly, she heard Li Yunze answer someone''s phone and said to come in the evening. In other words, Li Yunze is not in the villa at night... Although he has not been in recently, he lives in an apartment. Why rather took a taxi and went straight to the villa used for research. She wants to find the ''1 + 1 = 1'' ring. If that ring really exists, it should be in the villa?! ¡­¡­ Popular looking at the "sleeping" star, slowly raise your hand With the fingers moving gently, the air in the needle tube was squeezed out, and some potions were brought out. A shallow smile crossed the corner of the popular mouth. That smile showed the arrogance under the evil flattery. There was a sudden movement outside. The popular people looked sideways... They saw that Xiao Muren was already standing outside the glass window, frowning at him. The popularity secretly turned a white eye, some couldn''t stand it, hung their hands, covered the injection, put it in the storage place, and walked over. After the face scan, the glass door was opened and he went out. "Lord Xiao, I''m really under a lot of pressure like you!" Popular discontent. Xiao Mu chuckled, "I can see no pressure from your face." The popular cast aside his mouth, looked back at star and said discontentedly, "I have confidence in myself." "Having confidence doesn''t mean your medicine has no side effects." Xiao Mu picked her eyebrows and smiled, but that smile showed deep meaning. The popular shrugged. "It''s really hard to say... After all, no medicine can do without side effects." After a pause, he also told the truth, "the drugs left in star''s body are brought into the blood from the mother. In other words, they are congenital... Any disease, as long as it is congenital, will be very troublesome, and the possibility of recovery is very small." "But you are the most proud disciple of the ghost doctor." Xiao Mu said with a smile, "let the ghost doctor who has become an outsider take you as an apprentice. If you don''t have this ability, you''re not afraid to discredit your master." As soon as he heard the popularity, he quit immediately. "Master Xiao, I don''t like your words... You XK can''t be unscrupulous by relying on the relationship between Ling smile and my master." Xiao Mu dropped her eyes and smiled. When she lifted her eyes, she suddenly put away her smile and looked at the fashion, "fashion, I want you to say, what side effects will there be after this dose of needle goes on and the silence on star is solved?" Chapter 1675 The popular eyes looked at Xiao Mu deeply. After a while, they put away their joking heart and walked slowly to the window... Their eyes fell on star. The little guy is a lovely child and looks good. A pair of black eyes, shining and innate pride Such a child, in addition to the things born, but also later in Shi Shaoqin''s side, slowly infected. No wonder Xiao Mu likes him so much?! I think it must be a stormy figure in the future. "Mr. Xiao," Feng Yun slowly opened his mouth and didn''t take back his sight on star, "I''m still that sentence. It''s congenital and difficult to cure." He paused, turned and looked at Xiao Mu, "but what if there are side effects?" Xiao Mu frowned slightly and saw that the corners of the popular mouth gradually opened a smile. That smile was full of self-confidence. Xiao Mu didn''t think there was anything wrong with such arrogance? After all, capable people have the right to be invincible. "With my popularity, even if there are side effects, I can''t decide?" Popular pick eyebrow said. Xiao Mu smiled with a very kind smile, and said with a scheming look at the bottom of his eyes: "popular, I''m waiting for you." "..." the corner of the popular mouth twitched. Looking at Xiao Mu''s scheming appearance, he jumped angrily, "you did it on purpose." "Yes!" Xiao Mu admitted without hesitation. "You, you, you..." the popularity said several you, but there was no you. Therefore, it came with a pair of eyes full of angry flames. "Popular. I didn''t force you if you said it yourself." Xiao Mu ''ha ha'' smiled, "you are the most eloquent person. You can''t go back without a minute!" Popular and angry, he refused to talk to Xiao Mu on his face. Xiao Mu ignored the popularity and was angry there. He just walked slowly to the glass window and looked at the "sleeping" star with a soft smile at the corners of his mouth. "This side effect, sometimes it will be an incubation period..." he looked at the popularity and said, "do you think so?" "Hum!" With a cold hum, the wind turned his head and didn''t want to see Xiao Mu directly. Xiao Mu''s smile deepened, and he looked back and fell on star, "Alas, I don''t know if it will lurk for a lifetime..." The popularity was so angry that he clenched his teeth and stared. "Brush" for a moment, his vision chilly fell on Xiao Mu. Xiao Mu looked back at him, then took back and slowly opened his mouth: "popular, whether it''s a trap or a routine..." he paused, the smile on the corner of his mouth became deeper and deeper, and spread to the bottom of his eyes, "I still want to thank you." The fashion closed his eyes, took a deep breath, then slowly opened his eyes, tried to pull his teeth with a smile and said, "what he said is really to perform when kneeling!" With a cold hum, the popular went into the injection room without saying anything. The people around Mr. Xiao kept holding back their laughter, and they had been holding back their internal injuries. Until the popularity entered the injection room, he finally relaxed at one breath and said with a smile: "Mr. Xiao, there is no one in your routine." Xiao Mu said with a smile: "the popular spirit is high. When I strongly feel my doubts about him, I will be angry and naturally do something I don''t think much of." Paused, "of course, it''s mainly because everyone is familiar. He forgot to be on guard." "This man is really difficult to get along with, but he is easy to get along with." "Yes." Xiao Mu responded, looked at the popularity, took the injection, looked back at him, smiled and said, "so ah, such a person would be very good if he was around star." His eyes were deep. "Don''t worry, the next person will become star''s enemy because of a good relationship." The people around him sighed quietly, looked at Xiao Mu and said with a sigh: "Lord Xiao, you have paved a road for star. Will he just..." Xiao Mu smiled deeply, "if that''s true, it can only show that I''m blind." A child who has collected excellent genes and is well educated by Shi Shaoqin can only say that the demise of XK is doomed if he goes astray in the end. Of course, everything has two sides. If it''s not bad, it must be good Later, star did prove that Xiao Mu''s "investment" was right! The fashion doesn''t know what Xiao Mu is thinking at the moment. He just looks at the injection tube and his eyes are deep. Then he picks up star''s white and tender arm, finds the blood vessel and slowly pushes the potion into Even though star was in "deep sleep", he still twisted his small face in pain because of the push of the medicine. "Wow, I can''t tell when you''re awake!" I said, "Wow, I don''t know when you''re awake!" Speaking, the fashion looked at Xiao Mu again, smiled at his peaceful smile, and grinned secretly. I really wanted to give him a shot! Take back your sight, look at star again, and your heart is about to vomit to death. How could he be surrounded by Xiao Mu? He will be "restrained" by a little boy who is more than 20 years younger than himself in the future?! Alas! After the injection, he pulled out the needle... Took the prepared instrument, connected star''s heart and pulse, and observed the reaction after the injection. Time, little by little It was half an hour after the drug was fully absorbed by star. There''s no time for star to check his body. It''s not right for him. Xiao Mu has been waiting. Seeing the popular expression, he gradually let go of his heart Turning around, he didn''t wait for the popularity to come out. People had taken the lead to leave. "Lord Xiao, are you waiting?" Asked the man around him. Xiao Mu''s mouth was filled with a comfortable smile, "come back when star wakes up." The man nodded and left with Xiao Mu ¡­¡­ Monterey, USA. Shi Shaoqin sat under a sunshade outside a winery. A glass of red wine was quietly there in front of him, forming a static picture. Qingqing and the driver sat at another table not far away, frowning and looking at the time anxiously. There are less than five hours in the three days as agreed... As time approaches, Qing Qing is not as calm as Qin Shao. If it weren''t for fear, Qing Qing would probably "communicate" with Shi Shaoqin. "Alas," Qing Qing sighed, looked at the driver and said, "Qin Shao is really calm." The driver looked at her and said indifferently, "otherwise?" "..." Qingqing glared at the driver angrily, feeling that it was her fault to talk about emotional things with cold-blooded people. Take back your sight, Qingqing looks at Shi Shaoqin again Shi Shaoqin looked down at the shaking mobile phone on the table, and seemed to pick it up with a touch of tension on his face. He answered the phone and put it in his ear. Chapter 1676 Shi Shaoqin listened to the rustling voice on the phone, and the corners of his beautiful mouth rose slightly in a very light arc. However, such a radian spread a smile at the bottom of my eyes. "Man, I''ll send it later..." Xiao Mu''s voice was calm. "Shi Shaoqin, you should also know that I''ll take star away at the appointed time." Words that were neither light nor heavy came through force. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were deep and didn''t speak. Even at this moment, he thought the same. As long as star doesn''t want to do something, even if he subverts the world, he will let him Xiao Mu naturally knows what Shi Shaoqin is thinking? He didn''t poke it, but just hung up. Some things have different positions, natural ideas and practices... In the end, it depends on who can get it. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. He Yining took a taxi to the villa and stood at the door. It seemed that there was something surging in his mind. However, if you want to grasp it, you don''t know what it was? That kind of feeling seems to be impatient under the sweet, but also under the cold, such as to the ice cave. Why rather frown and look inside through the door Didn''t you live here with Li Yunze for three years and use their relationship to cover up brother Yunhao''s research?! Why does she feel sweet and cold?! He Yining couldn''t help it. His mouth had been tightly clenched. Her uncontrollable breathing became rapid. Several times, she had an impulse to escape here Why rather closed his eyes, swallowed it secretly, opened it slowly, went to the password lock, pressed the password and walked into the villa. As I approached the house, some fragmented pictures flashed through my mind. Too fast, so that she has not seen, it has disappeared into the next frame. When I opened the door of the villa, why would I rather look around, lift my lips, and walk in with a heavy step of subconsciousness Back to the bedroom, where she slept for three years. Why rather stand at the door and look at everything inside, as if familiar, but feel strange. "Why?" He Yining twisted his eyebrows and whispered. Even if the memory here is just because of drug research, how can there be a feeling of panic? It''s like, what''s missing? "The cooperation between doctor he and Li Shao is instinctive..." "Li Shao proposed at the Medical College of Luoyang University, and the ring was engraved with ''1 + 1 = 1''..." "Dr. he has loved Li Shao for 20 years..." "Doesn''t it mean that it was actually Dr. Li Shaoai who pretended to be real when he was acting?" "I don''t know. Anyway, the version is different..." "Yining, follow your heart, love or not, will give you the answer..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Why Ning''s mind became chaotic in an instant. The words of those people during the day crossed in her mind, as if to recall something, but she resisted. Breathing, getting shorter and shorter. Why would you rather pick up the door frame and gradually pinch it tightly. Because the action is not aware of the increase, the fingers are white because of the force. What the hell is going on? What is the truth? In her memory, there is clearly no romance with Li Yunze, or even any feelings But why would someone say that? Even, after coming here, why did she have two different feelings, sweet and sad, tearing her heart? Why rather gently fan her eyelashes and look at the scene in the bedroom, she actually felt that she was at a loss and at a loss under the long-term loneliness. Why did Ning hang her eyes, close her eyes and try to calm her thoughts before slowly stepping into the bedroom where she couldn''t tell what she felt. After looking around, he Yining finally went to the bedside and sat down. The villa is expected to be cleaned regularly. There is no dust here, and it doesn''t look like a place where no one has lived for months. Why did Ning open the drawer slowly? At that moment, she even resisted something in her heart... But when the drawer was opened and there was a jewelry box and a book in it, her heart suddenly "clicked". The hand that poked into the jewelry box trembled uncontrollably. He Yining held her breath, picked it up and opened it... When she looked at the two rings lying quietly inside, her eyes suddenly became red. Two rings, with and without patterns, but inside the ring, there is engraved "1 + 1 = 1". Why Ning''s breathing began to become anxious. She couldn''t tell whether it was resistance or something. The sight fell on the book pressed under the jewelry box before. Why did Ning take out his lips and slowly open it with shortness of breath This is a diary, or a "love letter"... A love letter written to one by one. He Yining watched page by page, from knowing that she was pregnant one by one, to her fear of being discovered one by one, applied to go to Donghai city for further study... And then came back with one. Although she didn''t talk too much about Li Yunze during the period, her feelings for Li Yunze and the complex emotions she gave birth to one by one because of her selfishness were clearly revealed between the lines. He Yining''s hand holding the book trembled slightly. It seemed that something was knocking on her heart, which made her want to explore more uncontrollably. However, because it was a "love letter" written to 11, she didn''t record too much about herself and Li Yunze Why Ning''s mind has been confused. She suddenly closed her book and looked at the ring in the jewelry box. She didn''t know how to face this situation?! No wonder everyone looked at her strangely when she woke up. No wonder Li Yunze will "suddenly" have feelings for her, even a look of deep love. If she really loved Li Yunze for so many years, why would a car accident be forgotten? Diary?! Suddenly, why did Ning scratch something in her mind? She just felt a terrible headache and even resisted. Then she thought The lights of such a large villa, which had been silent for several months, could not dispel the loneliness in the air. He Yining doesn''t know how long he sat there. After a long time, some slight images formed in his mind She closed her eyes and felt as if her whole body had been evacuated, but her hands held two rings tightly. Because of the dislocation of the two rings, the flesh in the palm is sandwiched in the middle, which hurts a little, but why Ning can''t feel it at the moment. The nose is getting sour. Eyes... Are beginning to turn red. A thin mist gradually appeared in the fundus of the eyes, obscuring the line of sight. Footsteps came from outside and fell to the ground one after another, beating he Yining''s heart. She slowly looked up and saw Li Yunze standing at the door of the bedroom They looked up. At that moment, no one spoke, but looked at each other like this. "Yining?!" After a while, Li Yunze called out cautiously, and his eyes fell on the "love letter" and jewelry box on the side. He couldn''t help but expand his pupils slightly. Chapter 1677 He Yining looked at Li Yunze and held the ring tightly Her lips have tightened. Mingming still has no impression of the so-called "love for Li Yunze", but I don''t know why. She holds the ring in her hand. At the moment, when she sees Li Yunze, her heart gradually tightens Then it turned into a complex pain and gradually spread in my heart. The nose is so sour! Why are you so sad? "Yining..." Li Yunze took back his sight on the jewelry box and book and looked at he Yining with a little red in his eyes. He didn''t know whether Yining remembered something or just saw these things and felt something. Three years of indifference is his guilt that he can''t repay Yining in his life. However, in the "love letter" to 11, Yining never had any negative energy. Between the lines, there is full of love and hope to fill one by one with life energy. When Yining woke up and wanted to move back to the affiliated building, he came back Found this "love letter" and the ring she put away. After 20 years of persistence, after three years of indifference, she was finally tired, so if there was no car accident, she actually wanted to leave... Right?! Li Yunze walked slowly and stood still in front of he Yining. Why Ning subconsciously stood up suddenly, and his breath became thick and rapid because of Li Yunze''s sudden appearance. "I, I..." he Yining''s nervous eyes fluttered, "that..." she bit her lower lip, looked at Li Yunze, and quickly lowered her eyes. In order to cover up her inner panic, she shifted the topic and asked, "how did you come back?" Li Yunze sighed quietly and saw why he would rather be like this. It was obvious that he had not remembered his love for him, but he was upset because he saw the love letter to one by one. But he also breathed out secretly. After all, three years of indifference not only made Yining suffer from emotional illness, but also the most hurt in her life. "Come back and get something," Li Yunze said softly. "The light is on from a distance." "I''m not a thief!" He Yining felt that his brain was short circuited. Li Yunze lowered his eyes and smiled, "well, you''re not a thief!" He raised his eyes with a murmur, looked at he Yining, who was blushing because of embarrassment, and gradually deepened his sight, "originally, this is my home..." Why was Ning Xin suddenly knocked heavily? She looked at Li Yunze and forgot her reaction for a moment. Li Yunze stepped forward and gently took why Ning into his arms. The sound of "jingle" came softly. It was the sound of the ring falling from its hand and falling to the ground. Li Yunze ignored it. Although the ring originally carried romance and love, it can not be denied that it also undertook Yining''s loneliness and pain for three years. It fell, it fell. Love can never be measured by foreign things, can it? "Yining, everything is over." Li Yunze said softly, "our future is still very long. I don''t want you to spend your time looking for memories." After a pause, he continued, "I believe that as long as we can continue each other, you will fall in love with me again..." "But..." why rather red eyes. "No, but!" Li Yunze let go of he Yining and looked at her with a smile. "Yining, I love you!" Why is Ning xinjian''er trembling because of Li Yunze''s honest sentence ''I love you'', which is a kind of palpitation and an instinctive fear. She suddenly pushed Li Yunze away, as if resisting something, "I, I don''t love you!" "Yes!" Li Yunze laughed and responded casually. "..." why Ning yanked at the corner of his mouth and glared at Li Yunze fiercely. He didn''t care about others and wanted to pass him and leave. Although everything is instinctive, she can''t think about it at all. But when the man passed Li Yunze, he suddenly grabbed him. "How do you go?" Li Yunze looked at her with a smile. "I''ll take a taxi!" Why should I answer subconsciously. Li Yunze smiled more. "There''s no taxi around here." Why Ning Leng, suddenly thought that this is the villa area. At that time, she could take a taxi from the hospital, but she went back... She didn''t even think about how to get there. "I''ll get something and take you back." Li Yunze let go of he Yining, and the spoiled one scraped on her nose. When she stared angrily, she turned around with a smile and went to the underground laboratory. He Yining waited until Li Yunze came out of the bedroom. He took a deep breath, and the rest of the light crossed the ring rolling on the ground. His sight fell on the two separate rings. He Yining was silent and squatted down to pick it up With one ring in each hand, his eyes fell on the pattern engraved with ''1 + 1 = 1'', and gradually... When he Yining deepened his thoughts, he raised a shallow smile from the corners of his mouth. No matter who loved whom in the past, although she didn''t feel the palpitation of Li Yunze now, it seemed that it was good to be with him... It wasn''t so difficult to accept. He Yining held the two rings in the palm of his hand and sighed deeply. However, there is something about Yunhao''s brother. Is Li Yunze really in love with her? "Yining, go..." Just as he Yining''s thoughts drifted away, Li Yunze''s voice came downstairs. "Oh, come!" Why would you rather answer subconsciously? It seems that you have experienced such an experience thousands of times. She got up, looked at the ring in her hand, put it in the jewelry box, took the love letter for one by one, stuffed it into her bag, and hurried downstairs. Li Yunze looked at why Ning came down from upstairs. Suddenly, there was a feeling that nothing had happened. Home, home. And his stupidity is still his stupidity. On the way back to the city, why Ning looked out of the window at the passing scenery under the street lamp and suddenly said: "Li Yunze..." "Huh?" Li Yunze looked sideways at why he Ning. He Yining looked back at Li Yunze and asked slowly, "you said, what if I can''t love you all the time?" "Squeak -" The car was suddenly stopped. Why do you prefer inertia and lean forward slightly? Fortunately, there was a seat belt. He Yining was frightened, his face was stiff, and subconsciously looked around Fortunately, it has not yet reached the urban area. There are no villas and cars on the road, and there is no ghost shadow. If Li Yunze suddenly stops in the middle of the road, he doesn''t know what will happen? "What''s the matter? Why did you stop suddenly?" He Yining twisted his eyebrows and looked at Li Yunze. Li Yunze clenched the steering wheel with his breath. He slowly turned his head and looked at he Yining. His voice was tense and asked, "Yining, what you just said... Can I understand that you are going to try to love me?" Chapter 1678 He Yining looked at Li Yunze''s nervous appearance and blushed. Fortunately, at the right moment, the position of the car is backed by street lights. There is some darkness in the car and I can''t see it clearly. "I... uh!" As soon as he Yining hesitated to spit out a word, he was caught by Li Yunze''s long arm and took her into his arms. Li Yunze held he Yining tightly. His strength showed his excitement and emotion at the moment. He Yining didn''t speak, but quietly let Li Yunze hold him. It''s because Yunze doesn''t know the reason why she''s looking forward to it. I don''t know how long it took before Li Yunze slowly let go of he Yining. The smile on his face at the moment is as happy as a child. Why Ning bit her lower lip and just wanted to sit down, who knows... Li Yunze took the opportunity to kiss her on the cheek. "Li Yunze!" Why rather stare. "Yes." Li Yunze answered with a smile, restarted the car and went downtown. "Do you want to eat?" "No!" Why should I rather curl my lips, "don''t try to buy me off with food. I''m not food." Li Yunze looked at he Yining with a smile, took back his eyes and said, "how about going to roll a string and a can of ice cola?" He Yining swallowed his saliva subconsciously after listening to Lu Chuan and ice cola. After work and Yanyan also casually ate something and went to the book bar. Originally, she was going to read for a while and then go to the night snack. Who knew she came to the villa. At this moment, the greedy insect seduced by Li Yunze came up. She nodded a little without ambition, "OK!" Li Yunze''s smile on the corner of his mouth became bigger and drove to snack street. When I parked the car and got off, I sent a text message to the people waiting for him: the beauty has an appointment. I''ll send you something later. The other party replied: the beauty has an appointment. Are you sure you can send it "later"? With ambiguous rhetorical questions, the meaning is obvious. Li Yunze smiled helplessly and replied: if there is further development, it can only be sent to you tomorrow. The other party didn''t reply. Obviously, she didn''t want to pay attention to Li Yunze''s immoral behavior of a woman forgetting serious things. On the night of early summer, there is an open-air stall, a can of ice cola Such a life is the most ordinary but happiest for he Yining. "Li Yunze, do you know when you are the most lovely?" He Yining asked after taking a sip of coke. Li Yunze raised his eyes and looked at why he Ning. He said faintly, "when I give you coke." "Smart!" He Yining said with a smile, "tell me about you. You''re going to have no fun in life because of your career as a doctor." She took a string and ate it. "I''ve been waking up for months. I''ve been obedient to eat the nutritious working meal you made every day." "Yes." Li Yunze answered with a smile and drank a cold beer. "Occasionally, don''t think you tell me this, I''ll let you drink it every day." "..." he Yining glared discontentedly and said, "I''ll have another can of what you let me drink tonight." When Li Yunze had no time to speak, he yelled with the boss, "boss, want another ice coke!" Li Yunze actually doesn''t intend to stop he Yining. Sometimes people are happy, not that they can''t indulge themselves... As long as they are in the degree, they can! ¡­¡­ Monterey, USA. There are less than two hours left before the appointed time. The noon sun is just right, and the hot breath in the air is filled in the air, which makes people a little anxious. Shi Shaoqin still sat there calmly, a lamb chop with a glass of Rhone Valley wine at the suggestion of the sommelier. Qingqing sighed again and looked at Shi Shaoqin shaking her head and eating baked seafood noodles. She seemed to have no time to taste what it was like at the entrance. The driver still looked indifferent, eating without any expression. "Alas..." Qing Qing lowered her fork and sighed deeply. The driver looked at her coldly and continued to eat. Qingqing is worried about herself and can''t see others calm down. Shi Shaoqin couldn''t control it and didn''t dare. Naturally, looking at the driver around her, she felt even more uncomfortable. "It''s no use staring at me." The driver said while eating, "the result is set. Besides... It''s your turn to worry when Qin Shao is here?" Hearing this, Qingqing grinned angrily, "why can''t I worry? Qinshao has qinshao''s worry, I have my worry... I don''t believe you have no feelings for star? As long as you have some feelings, you will worry!" "..." the driver grinned. He felt that discussing problems with women was just foolishness. "Have you nothing to say?" Qingqing snorted coldly. She knew she was unreasonable, but now she just wanted to find a way to relieve it. Because she''s really worried If the silence in star''s body is removed, it''s best. If she can''t be removed, she doesn''t have the urgent hope... As long as star is healthy, what if she doesn''t have memory every day? In fact, everything is double-sided. Refreshing your memory every day represents the blank and clean world, doesn''t it?! Although there is nothing wrong with Qingqing''s idea because of worry, she has forgotten that if people have no memory, how can life be called life? Just as Qingqing was anxious about waiting, a private plane docked at San Francisco International Airport. Then, a spacious and comfortable Rolls Royce phantom stopped at the nearby special passage. Within ten minutes, Rolls Royce phantom had picked up people and drove out of the airport. Without stopping, it drove directly to Monterey The car was quiet. Xiao Mu sat in the back and looked at star, who was still "sleeping", and took back his sight with a smile across the corner of his mouth. "Mr. Xiao, you said..." the driver looked at the back seat from the rearview mirror. "Will star have memory when he wakes up?" Lord Xiao has done so much that he is empty in the end. Isn''t it a big joke. Xiao Mu always smiled at the corners of his mouth, "this popular man is very arrogant, but if he doesn''t have that ability, he won''t blow that cow!" The more he said, the happier he was. "Otherwise, I won''t go around him and leave someone for star." The driver listened and laughed. He wanted to laugh at the thought of Xiao''s popularity in the morning. Car, all the way to Monterey, not fast. Just ten minutes before the appointed time, Rolls Royce phantom stopped in front of Shi Shaoqin''s winery Shi Shaoqin glanced over, his eyes narrowed slightly and got up. Just as Qingqing wanted to move, she was held down by the driver. Then she saw him shake his head to stop. Qingqing went back and sat down again. Master Xiao didn''t get off the bus. Shi Shaoqin opened the door and got on the bus. He didn''t say hello, but looked at star, who was sleeping in the children''s room, frowned slightly, and looked unkindly at Xiao Mu, "when can star wake up?" Chapter 1679 "Fast?" As Xiao Mu spoke slowly, his sight also fell on star. Shi Shaoqin looked at Xiao Mu and was obviously dissatisfied with his ambiguous answer. Looking back, Shi Shaoqin untied the seat belt on the child seat, picked up star and wanted to get off "Hey?" Xiao Mu was slightly stunned. "Don''t you ask star what''s going on now?" Shi Shaoqin''s action slowed slightly. When Xiao Mu was going to take some shelves, who knew he just glanced lightly. After Xiao Mu, he opened the door and got out of the car with star carefully. Xiao Mu pulled back from the corner of his mouth and looked at Shi Shaoqin''s straight back through the window. Suddenly, he felt a bit gnashing his teeth. "Master Xiao," the driver laughed, "this Shi Shaoqin is really calm." He withdrew his sight from Shi Shaoqin''s back and looked at Xiao Mu. "He''s not worried at all that star''s medicine hasn''t been relieved?" Xiao Mu smiled and smiled deeply and cunningly. With the depth of an old fox, he said slowly: "I can''t take star away at the specified time without lifting it. Shi Shaoqin is very clear-minded and knows very well..." he took back his sight and crossed a deep smile at the corner of his mouth. "Now for him, star''s health is the most important." The driver raised his eyebrows and asked without saying anything more: "Mr. Xiao, are you going back?" "Go back!" Xiao Mu slowly leaned back on the seat. Some hands with dried skin gently crossed the children''s seat. As her eyes deepened, she slowly said, "send someone to pay attention to the growth of star. I want to know Shi Shaoqin''s education at any time." "Yes!" The driver answered, turned his head and looked at Shi Shaoqin again, then took back his sight, sat upright, started the car and left. At the same time, Qin Guang and Shi Qing slowly took back their eyes on the winery. At the same time, Shi Shaoqin looked back at the car leaving. "Qin Shao," Qingqing asked at the right moment, looking at the sleeping star and twisting her eyebrows, "how long will star sleep?" "I don''t know." Shi Shaoqin took back his sight after he spoke faintly, "let the airport arrange and go back to the Mo palace." "OK." Qingqing answered, and the driver had clearly gone to drive over. Shi Shaoqin and others went directly to the airport. After getting on the special plane, they went to Mo palace Star didn''t wake up until he could vaguely see the ink palace from the small window of the plane. The little guy''s eyes moved slightly because of rotation. "Qin Shao," said Qingqing in a low voice with surprise, "star seems to be waking up." Shi Shaoqin looked at the increasingly clear ink palace, frowned slightly, took the telephone in the cabin and said, "hover in the air, don''t land first." "Yes!" A reply came from the cockpit. Shi Shaoqin hung up and went to star Star''s eyelids kept moving gently, as if he wanted to open them, but he couldn''t open them and was working hard. The corners of Qingqing''s mouth closed tightly together. She was nervous and had clenched her clothes. It was an urgent emotion mixed with worry. Shi Shaoqin''s face was so indifferent that he couldn''t see much emotion. He just stared at star with a pair of eyes. After about two minutes, star raised his hand, rubbed his eyes as if he hadn''t woken up, and his little mouth tooted up. It was very cute. Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful corners of his mouth gradually filled with a shallow smile because of star''s ordinary to simple action. Star rubbed a few times and slowly opened his eyes. A pair of bright eyes looked left and right, and his eyes fell on Shi Shaoqin''s face. The corners of Shi Shaoqin''s mouth unconsciously tightened slightly, and even the muscles at his temples seemed to become stiff because of tension. He didn''t speak, he just waited. Qingqing swallowed involuntarily, as if it wasn''t that. She would forget to breathe. "Stone, hold!" Seeing that Shi Shaoqin was silent, star slightly opened his arms with some dissatisfaction. All the tension around Shi Shaoqin''s mouth turned into a smile. Qingqing''s nose was sour and her eyes became red. It seemed that she couldn''t help feeling and her eyes were wet. Shi Shaoqin possessed himself and picked up star He didn''t speak. He just hugged the little guy, closed his eyes, and covered up all the emotions he couldn''t help venting. On the plane, I was immersed in the joy of star''s memory and happiness. In front of the beach of Mo palace, Shi juechi looked at the private luxury passenger plane hovering in the air and slightly frowned, "go and contact and see what the situation is?" Carney was also wondering why he didn''t land in the sky. Listening to Shi juechi''s mouth, he quickly took back his sight and nodded, "OK." Then he turned and went to the central control room. The central control room contacted the cabin and heard that Shi Shaoqin asked him to hover without landing. Carney was surprised, but he could only report it to Shi juechi in this way. "Jue Shao, do you think..." Carney frowned with some worry, "is there something wrong with star?" "No." Shi juechi still looked at the plane circling in the air and said calmly, "if something really happened, Shaoqin will land at the first time." After a pause, he smiled slightly at the corners of his mouth, "I can''t tell. It''s the little guy who suddenly feels funny!" "..." Carney''s mouth twitched. For more than two years, Shi Shaoqin was not used to it every time because of star. It can be imagined that Qin Shao has no lower limit. Carney hung up the phone and left the central control room. Just when he met Shi juechi, he saw the plane that had been circling and finally landed at the small airport of Mogong. "Go and have a look..." Shi juechi said, already lifting his feet, obviously showing urgency. Before the man reached him, he saw Shi Shaoqin get off the plane with the little guy in his arms. The little guy waved his hand at Shi Jue Chi and shouted sweetly, "Uncle Chi!" Shi juechi suddenly stopped his steps, opened his gentle eyes and asked happily, "Carney, what did star call me just now?" Carney was also full of joy. "Jue Shao, star calls you uncle Chi." Shi juechi glanced at him, and his gentle face shook with a comfortable and moving smile. Because star began to have a memory, the whole Mo palace will be closed in the next three days because of Shi Shaoqin''s happiness, and the workers rarely have a rest time. For Mo palace, the loss of money is unpredictable. But no matter how much loss, Shi Shaoqin can''t compare with star''s memory at the moment. Children like to play. They always have to be accompanied by someone to light a bonfire and mobilize the atmosphere, don''t they?! "Stone, dance together!" Star happily ran to Shi Shaoqin and pointed to the people dancing around the campfire. Chapter 1680 Although Shi juechi changed her heart once, she still couldn''t have violent activities, so she always sat outside with Shi Shaoqin and watched everyone play with star. At this moment, I saw star coming to find Shi Shaoqin to dance. Suddenly, the corners of his mouth held back a smile and turned the lamb chops on the oven. He didn''t speak, waiting for Shi Shaoqin''s reaction. "Stone!" When star saw that Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, he shouted again. A pair of black eyes also lit two clusters of flames in the light of the fire. Shi Shaoqin slightly wrung his eyebrows. Just when Shi Jue Chi thought whether he promised without integrity or refused, he heard him say, "wait for the shrimp fisherman to come back. Stone wants to wash the shrimp for you." Star''s eyes lit up when he heard the shrimp Children are children. If they have more interesting things, they will forget their previous requirements. Naturally, smart as star will! "Well, you go and play with everyone for a while, wait for the stone to wash the shrimp, and call you to come and bake yourself, okay?" Shi Shaoqin asked. "Yes." Star nodded happily and was easily fooled away by Shi Shaoqin. After star left, Shi Jue Chi glanced sideways at Shi Shaoqin and said, "it''s not good for you to deceive children like this." "Do I?" Shi Shaoqin glanced at the location of the beach. "The shrimp fisherman is back." "..." Shi Jue Chi smiled and handed the roasted lamb chops to the people on the side for cutting. "In fact, I''m also curious about what it''s like for you to dance with everyone." "Then you can only continue to be curious." Shi Shaoqin spoke faintly. Shi juechi raised her eyebrows, looked sideways at Shi Shaoqin, and asked with deepening eyes, "I''m still curious... If star has been pestering you to dance, will you go?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t answer immediately. He just looked at star, who was playing on the swing with a strong man with thick arms. After a while, he replied, "he has memory now, and I don''t know which way he will go in the future..." after a pause, his eyes deepened, as if he was spoiled and worried by his parents, "However, he must understand that it is not what he wants, so he will be able to achieve his wish." "There''s nothing wrong with that, and it''s right!" Shi juechi smiled, put the seashells on the grill, and said in a relaxed voice, "however, you can''t hide the fact that you can''t pull down your face and dance in public." "..." Shi Shaoqin looked cold, squinted with dissatisfaction, and took back his sight. At the right time, the shrimp fisherman came back, and the leader was obviously very happy and said, "Qin Shao, I got a big one." Then the people behind him came forward... The prawn looked almost one meter long. Shi Shaoqin looked at star, who was still playing, and said with a slight smile: "go and call star to wash together." "Yes!" The man answered and called star. Shi juechi felt that if he didn''t know the facts, he would feel that Shaoqin was star''s father. Because he knows all star''s preferences too well. Look When star sees such a big shrimp, his face is happier and excited than playing in the crowd. The night of Mo palace gradually sank because of the joy and bonfire that the outside world felt impossible. When star fell asleep with a happy smile on his mouth, the campfire outside was put out and everything became peaceful. The night wind blew and rustled the sunflower fields, but it seemed that they were still strong and turned slightly... Ready to meet the rising of the early sun ¡­¡­ Five days later, Los Angeles. "Ding Dong!" "J, open the door." Jane Mo put the freshly baked bread on the table and was ready to get juice. Aunt Luo is preparing small dishes and waiting for the steamed steamed dumplings. "Express." J came in with a box. "Jane Mo, yours." "Who sent it?!" Jane Mo was puzzled and said casually, "last time Yining had a problem with the express..." J couldn''t stand rolling his eyes. "Well, I don''t know if it''s a time bomb." "It''s a time bomb. It''s OK. It just gives you a chance to do electrical board interference." Jane make complaints about it. "Childish!" Jane Jie came down from upstairs and happened to hear a conversation between them. Not long after his eighth birthday, Jane Jie withdrew her baby fat and now looks like a handsome boy. Jane wrinkled her nose at him. "Be careful. I''ll talk to your father later." "Ha ha!" Jian Jie sat down at the table. His cold face looked more and more like Gu Beichen. Jane Mo has opened the express, looked at the beautifully packaged box inside, and subconsciously crossed a smile around her mouth. Take out the card. There are handwritten words on it, which is different from Gu Beichen''s strength and strength. It has a ethereal cloud and light wind, but it makes people feel like they can control everything. "What is the flower language of sunflowers?" J read the words on the card and looked puzzled. "The sun!" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows and opened the gift box. Sure enough, there are many small bags inside, with taste cards tied to each place of the mouth. "Mom," Jian Jie looked at the flower language just searched from his mobile phone, "the flower language of sunflowers, as well as love and silent love!" At the right time, Gu Beichen went downstairs with the little princess in his arms. When Jian Jie''s words fell, his eyes had sunk. "Mom, I can''t imagine that you are the mother of three children, and there are people who love you..." Jian Jie''s dark belly Yu Guang crossed Gu Beichen and continued, "tut Tut, I really don''t know whether I should think my father is in crisis or mom you attract bees and butterflies." "..." Jane frown looked at his face, and make complaints about Beichen, cold Tucao Tucao, "I have never seen such a pit mother''s son." Then she looked at Gu Beichen who came over and pretended to be all right, flipping the melon seed bag, "eh, this time the cards are stars!" "It seems that some people are going to develop agriculture." Gu Beichen sneered and gave Yan Yan to Aunt Luo. J frowned, "if Qin Shao really develops agriculture, will he be unable to support himself?" He seems really worried. "No," Gu Beichen said, taking out his mobile phone and sliding his fingers on the screen. "He can monopolize the melon seed industry in the whole world. He specializes in it." At the same time, he has edited the information and sent it out. Shi Shaoqin looked at the message sent by Gu Beichen: I want to thank you. After all, she finally knows the meaning of melon seeds I gave my wife. Shi Shaoqin looked at star, who was playing the game of recognizing people, and replied: I also want to say thanks to you. After all, Mo''er left a large number of sunflowers in Mo palace... It turned out that she also loved me. Chapter 1681 The pupil of Qin Mo gradually wiped the north corner of his mouth and replied coldly. "What''s the matter?" Jian Mo looked at Gu Beichen''s bad face and asked. He put all the melon seed bags on the tea table. This time, there are more than 20 flavors, some of which have been eaten before and some of which are new. Gu Beichen''s eyes darkened and said softly, "it''s all right." Jane Mo smiled and thought. It was estimated that her family Gu was jealous and ignored. She doesn''t understand. His wife is his own and is tired of being with him all day. How can he find so much vinegar to eat?! Mainly, some vinegar is inexplicable. Will Shi Shaoqin love her? How is that possible? Jane Mo raised her eyebrows, took out her mobile phone, took a picture and sent a circle of friends: someone asked me, what is the flower language of sunflowers? My son told me that in addition to representing the "sun", the flower language of sunflowers also has love and silent love! Happy... As a mother who has been married for seven or eight years, there are still people who love me, which means I am happy. Soon, Jane Mo received a pile of praise and messages. Xiangwan: sister Mo, I want to eat that lavender and rose flavor. Mu Xiaoran: sister Mo, your Gu is going to kill you! Mo Xiaoya: Alas, someone, you can learn from the suitor of foam. Look... How romantic. Daxiong: Xiaoya, I''ll buy you a golden melon seed when my design drawing dividends come down! Li Xiaoyue: girl, I already smell the sour smell of your general manager. Mo Shaochen: Well, I smell it when I''m with my wife. Ye Chenyu: my wife likes to eat melon seeds recently. Keep it. I''ll go and get some later! Chen Chen: My Uncle Ye is the best, and my Uncle Ye is the best. Mmda! Remember to bring me some of each! Xiao Jing: some people are busy becoming dogs, while others show their love and abuse dogs! Despise, squint! ¡­¡­ Behind a pile of messages, make complaints about two tucks. J: Maybe this melon seed is just planted by you. In some places, no one has the leisure to eat melon seeds slowly. Someone can only get you a few tricks for his tall people. Don''t think too much. Jane Jie: I can''t stand having a narcissistic mother! "Hey, are you two interesting?" Jane make complaints about J and Jane Jr. at the table, "no place to tuck up, is it?" J and Jian Jie looked at each other. They had a tacit understanding between big and small. They didn''t talk to Jian Mo and continued to eat. Jian Mo frowned with dissatisfaction. Seeing Gu Beichen typing with his mobile phone and waiting for his reply, she didn''t wait for a long time. She didn''t know when to add it or leave a message from a friend who didn''t have notes. Meteor: love is mutual! Just four words, some people can''t understand, but they are full of thought-provoking hidden meaning. "Who is this meteor?" Jane murmured and went to look through each other''s information. Finally, seeing the other person''s personal data, he wrote a sentence "I like the design style of designer Jane very much". Suddenly, Jane Mo summarized this person into his admirers without thinking much. But Gu Beichen is obviously not as worried as Jian mo. The card paper with star pattern and wechat are called meteor... Shi Shaoqin, can you be a little more naive?! Gu Beichen''s face was overcast, and he thought that Shi Shaoqin had taken Jian Mo to see the meteor shower before. In the depths of his eyes, he flashed a cold look. "It''s time for dinner," said Jane Mo, raising her eyebrows to J. "J, please say less to your family and send more next time... He makes those delicious flavors, and now there are many people around me." She took the milk and poured herself a cup. "In fact, he can really contract the whole melon seed industry in the future, as president Gu said." Then she looked at Beichen. Gu Beichen was still holding his mobile phone and sending something. Jane Mo frowned slightly, "ah Chen, what are you doing?" "Nothing." Gu Beichen pressed the send button and installed the mobile phone. Shi Shaoqin looked down at Gu Beichen''s message: no matter how beautiful the meteor is, it''s just a moment of youth. Even if the beauty of that moment is retained, it always disappears in the dark! Shi Shaoqin''s good-looking lips flashed a shallow smile, but there was a faint gloom in the depths of his eyes. After installing the mobile phone, Shi Shaoqin raised his eyes and looked at star again. Gradually, his vision became deeper. Star card, plus the wechat name of ''meteor''. He knew that Beichen would think that he just missed watching meteors in Valentine''s mountain with Mo''er. However The star card represents a gift from star to his mother. And meteors do belong to the night! It''s like star to him Shi juechi came over from star and smiled, "star''s memory is amazing." He sat down next to Shi Shaoqin, took a sip of tea and said, "one hundred people is right." Shi Shaoqin''s slender, jade like fingers tapped gently on the table, and his eyes became far-reaching as he looked at star. "Wait, row two hundred people." "Are you going to start training him now?" Shi Jue Chi asked. "Teach for fun." Shi Shaoqin said faintly, "star is destined to carry a lot. It''s better to let him know in advance than to face things temporarily." Shi Jue Chi agrees. If star really wants to go to XK in the future, there are some things that cannot be avoided. Shi Shaoqin tilted his head and looked at the people standing by. The man hurried forward, "Qin Shao." "Let someone cut down two acres of land from the back mountain," Shi Shaoqin said faintly, "dig a one meter pit and bury the earth." The man was stunned at first and then asked, "Qin Shao, it''s kind..." "Sunflower." Shi Shaoqin''s voice was always flat. After hearing this, the man answered and organized people to cut down trees. "Star now has such a large sunflower field, but also two acres of land?" Shi juechi asked with a wrung eyebrow when the man left. Shi Shaoqin glanced at him, put down his overlapping legs and got up. At the same time, he said faintly, "the people around Mo''er grab melon seeds with her. We need to get more to share." When the words fell, others had raised their feet and walked towards star Shi juechi''s face was full of consternation. He twisted his eyebrows and looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back. Finally, they all turned into a deep sigh, "one Gu Beichen let you pay attention, one Jian Mo let you sink, and one star... Became your salvation." He sighed again, "Shaoqin, you seem to have let yourself go, but it seems that you never let yourself go." ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. Jane Mo had just changed her shoes when she heard aunt Luo murmur, "it''s this point today. Why hasn''t Xiaonian come yet?" Jane, it''s time to stop She took the bag. "If there''s any delay, she should call." Just then, Jane Mo''s phone rang. She took it out and saw that it was Zhang Nian. She frowned slightly and picked it up, "Xiao Nian?" Chapter 1682 "Mo Mo," Zhang Nian''s anxious voice came, panting, "my mother seems to be uncomfortable again. I''ve just arrived at the door of the community. I''m going back." Jane Mo quickly said, "I''ll take you there." "No, I''m cycling." Zhang Nian said, "well, I''m sorry." "It''s all right. Aunt Luo is at home." Jane Mo said with a slightly held voice, "slow down on your way. What''s the matter? Call me, huh?" "Well... Thank you." After Zhang Nian finished, he hurriedly said sorry, hung up the phone and rode home. It''s rush hour. Jane Mo knows that she drives faster than Zhang Nian''s bike. When Zhang Nian got home, Qiao Jinnian had arrived. "Senior, how''s my mother?" Zhang Nian gasped. "To be sent to the hospital for first aid, the ambulance will arrive soon." Qiao Jinnian said while taking temporary first aid measures. Zhang Nian''s eyes were red. "When I left, it was clear that my mother was still well..." she said, her face full of remorse, "I should pay more attention." Qiao Jinnian looked at Zhang Nian. "Don''t worry..." he sighed, "you are a nurse. You know your aunt''s disease is uncertain." Zhang Nian''s eyes are getting redder and redder. Knowing doesn''t mean you can forgive yourself. After Dad suddenly left, although mom hasn''t asked why dad died, she should be clear. After all, in such a place, father''s identity, hidden things... How can mother not know? Mom seemed very calm on the surface, but she must be suffering in her heart, and then it broke out The ambulance roared on the road and went all the way to Shuya hospital. The emergency room was busy. Outside, Zhang Nian sat alone in the waiting chair. Her hands were twisted together, as if it was very quiet, but no one knew her suffering at the moment. The sound of the elevator arriving came. Chu Zixiao came out. When he saw Zhang Nian, he subconsciously wanted to step forward However, just raised his foot and stopped. He stood there, quietly looking at Zhang Nian''s lonely figure and didn''t come forward. Just when Mo Mo called him and said that Zhang Nian''s mother might be uncomfortable again, he put down the case file he had just got in his hand, handed it to Tang Yu without saying anything, took it back to the law firm, and rushed to Zhang Nian''s house. But there''s no one left. He came to Shuya without thinking After several months of precipitation, he seemed to have gradually moved away from Zhang Nian, giving her space to live a calm life. However, few people know that every day, he pays silent attention to her. Time, little by little. I don''t know if Yang Yi''s condition is not very good this time. Qiao Jinnian has been in the emergency room for more than two hours and hasn''t come out. As time went on, Zhang Nian felt like a tiny needle pricking her every second. It didn''t hurt so much, but it was hard for her to support. Buried his face in his legs, Zhang Nian frowned, closed his eyes and prayed Mom, you must survive! No matter how much I pay, I just want you to live well... Our mother and daughter can depend on each other and live well. Mom, please believe me, as long as you live, I will make our life better Mom, please! Zhang Nian''s body began to tremble. She expected it. However, because of her mother''s situation and her nursing background, she knew how difficult the current situation would be. At this moment, she can only pray. "Xiao Zi?" Why Ning came to pick up things and saw Chu Zixiao standing there. He was slightly suspicious and looked down at Zhang Nian, "what''s the matter? Has anyone entered the emergency room?" Chu Zixiao took back his sight and looked at he Yining. He didn''t say much, but asked faintly, "how did you come here?" "Take something." He Yining took back his sight on Zhang Nian, "is there anything you need to ask? Let me help you understand it?" Chu Zixiao shook his head with a touch of astringency at the corner of his mouth. "No," he looked at he Yining again, "go and be busy!" Why should Ning shrug his shoulders? Although he felt the strangeness between Chu Zixiao and Zhang Nian, he didn''t ask much and nodded to help himself. However, after taking the things, she still understood the situation of Xia Yang Yi. When she knew that she was not very optimistic, she felt it necessary to tell Chu Zixiao that she might be able to warm other girls! Unfortunately, when she went out, Chu Zixiao people had left Why rather slightly frown, involuntarily murmured, "I can''t think more?" Then she looked back at Zhang Nian sitting there alone, sighed, turned and left Chu Zixiao didn''t leave the hospital, but went to the toll office. After paying the emergency expenses to Yang Yi, he opened a medical pricing account. "If you need to be hospitalized or take medicine, you can price it all from here..." Chu Zixiao explained. "OK." The cashier gave the receipt to Chu Zixiao. After Chu Zixiao took it, he thought about it and said, "give me a medical list every day." "Send your email?" "Yes." Chu Zixiao answered, took the pen and wrote the email address. At the beginning, Momo''s mother left. Although Beichen opened a pricing account in the hospital, he missed a lot of things because he didn''t track in real time. He can see Yang Yi''s medical list every day, know Yang Yi''s situation that day, and help Zhang Nian. However, Chu Zixiao didn''t expect that there are some things you always think you can think of, but just like when you went abroad, you couldn''t control Jian Mo''s father''s death. Now he still can''t control it. Human life is so fragile in front of illness. Zhang Nian kept crying, his body pumping, and the sadness spread into the air. Qiao Jinnian''s face was heavy. He wanted to comfort him, but he didn''t know how to comfort him. Yang Yi''s life is slowly passing. First aid is just to make her miss the world more for a while. "Mom..." Zhang Nian sobbed and held Yang Yi''s hand tightly. Tears kept falling down. "Xiaonian..." Yang Yi looked at her daughter sadly. Her eyes were full of guilt and said powerlessly, "mom is going to find your father. Forgive her selfishness..." "Sobbing..." Zhang Nian shook his head while crying. Yang Yi''s trembling and weak hand held her daughter, and her eyes turned red, "I''m sorry..." "Mom..." Zhang Nian cried out in tears. She doesn''t want her mother to leave. She doesn''t want to. Qiao Jinnian put his arm around Zhang Nian''s shoulder blade and made a slight effort to comfort and support her. Yang Yi looked at Qiao Jinnian in good time and heard him say, "aunt, don''t worry, I''ll take good care of Xiaonian." As soon as Yang Yi heard this, she smiled happily, then looked at Zhang Nian and said slowly, "Xiao Nian, doctor Qiao is very good... Mom will be relieved to have him by your side when she leaves." She said, tears also fell down, "Xiaonian, can you promise mom... Make room in your heart and give it to Dr. Qiao?" Chapter 1683 Zhang Nian was suddenly stunned. She looked at Yang Yi and froze. It seemed that she didn''t know how to answer or how to answer, but tears poured out instinctively. "Xiaonian, promise your mother!" Yang Yihong looked at Zhang Nian with red eyes, and her voice became more and more powerless. She knew that she shouldn''t "kidnap" her daughter like this. But what could she do? She''s leaving. Xiaonian is really alone. It''s impossible for her and Chu Zixiao to cross that barrier again. Is it possible for her to look at a woman alone all her life? Qiao Jinnian may not be the person Xiaonian wants, but a boy with such a good job and good looks has never shown timidity when he knows that Xiaonian has a drag on his mother. She feels that giving Xiaonian to him can at least have support in the future. Yang Yi''s eyelashes trembled slightly. Obviously, with the passage of time, her life was gradually pulling away from her body. "Xiao Nian..." Yang Yi shouted hard again. Zhang Nian kept crying. She didn''t know how to promise. She can''t be with Chu Zixiao. Between them is the death of Zhang Jia and the lives of her father and mother. However, she can''t be with Qiao Jinnian! She can''t let Qiao Jinnian''s life pay for her because she wants to promise her mother. But mother is leaving now. This is her last thought before leaving. Does she really want her mother to leave with regret? Zhang Nian bit his lower lip and said, "Mom..." "Aunt, don''t worry!" At the moment when Zhang Nian spoke, Qiao Jinnian interrupted what she wanted to say and said, "I will take good care of Zhang Nian and be with her... Don''t worry!" Yang Yi showed her last smile, a reassuring and gratifying smile. She has no chance to say what she really wants, but to let others know what she wants?! Yang Yi left. I left with a smile. For her, she not only followed her husband to leave, but also did not give her daughter more drag. Although selfish, but also a helpless and reluctant mother. Zhang Nian thought she would collapse, but the fact is that she doesn''t know how to react to her emotions except for silent tears. Maybe she knew what was going to happen the moment her father left Maybe... She knows better than anyone that her mother can''t be with her all the time. Yang Yi was temporarily sent to the morgue. With the help of the hospital and Qiao Jinnian, she contacted the cremation the day after tomorrow. Jian Mo heard about Yang Yi''s death. It was already in the afternoon. While she rushed to the hospital, she called Chu Zixiao. Unfortunately, the phone has been turned off. Jian Mo suddenly remembered that Chu Zixiao had a court to be held in the afternoon. It is estimated that the court will be held in the afternoon. Jian Mo sent a message to Chu Zixiao and told him that Zhang Nian''s mother had left. "What do you need, Xiao Nian? You''re welcome, huh?" Jane Mo said and hugged Zhang Nian. No one can feel the pain of leaving her mother after her father left. "Yes." Zhang Nian tried to pull the corners of his mouth and gently responded. Then he sniffed and said, "thank you!" "Silly girl." Jane Mo let go of Zhang Nian, looked at her painfully, raised her hand to wipe her tears, comforted and said, "Mom just went to accompany dad, you and us!" Zhang Nian nodded. "I''ll be strong." "Yes." Jian Mo sighed quietly and suddenly sighed that nature had made people. "Xiaonian, the confirmation requires you to go and sign it." Qiao Jinnian came at the right time. When he saw Jian Mo, he nodded slightly. Jane Mo didn''t delay Zhang Nian either. She comforted him and went to find he Yining. But when he turned around, he subconsciously looked back at Qiao Jinnian, frowned slightly and took back his sight. "What''s the matter?" Why would you rather see Jane? She''s a little angry. Jian Mo said something about Zhang Nian, so he Yining said, "I met Zixiao in the morning. I went to find out. The girl''s mother has been holding her last breath and can''t help it." She handed Jane mo the poured water. Jane Mo took a drink and said, "I think of my own affairs. I''m a little blocked in my heart." He Yining was silent. After all, his parents left at the same time. If such a thing doesn''t happen to me, I really can''t feel it. "By way, what happened to Zixiao and Zhang Nian?" He Yining asked. After thinking for a while, Jian Mo said, "because of some accidents, the demise of Zhangjia is directly related to Zixiao." "That''s really hard for him." He Yining sighed, "I gossip at that time. It seems that Dr. Qiao chases Zhang Nian very closely, and Yang Yi likes Dr. Qiao very much..." Jian Mo sighed, "we can only help with such things. The final result depends on the party concerned." After a pause, she looked at he Yining and asked, "how are you and Yunze?" Why should Ning subconsciously look around and find that no one else in the office was there, so she lowered her voice and asked, "Mo Mo, Li Yunze and I......" she leaned down and asked in a different way, "did I really love Li Yunze before?" Jane Mo looked at why Ning tangled and smiled, "just ask what you feel about Li Yunze now?" "Huh?" He Yining didn''t react. "What happened in the past is all about the past. Now and in the future are what you want to continue to go on, aren''t you?" Jane Mo raised her eyebrows. "Yining, ask your heart now if you are interested in Yunze?" He Yining held his cheek in his hand and looked thoughtful. Jane Mo smiled, "if you are moved, it doesn''t matter who she loved in the past. Now it''s important to love each other." "Well, I''ll look back and see if I want to love him!" Why Ning Zhe''s mouth laughed, it was an instinctive emotion. Even if she didn''t find it herself. Jane Mo looked at her and was relieved to know that Li Yunze''s ability in recent months had not been wasted. ¡­¡­ After Zhang Nian signed the confirmation, she went to the toll office and planned to settle her mother''s first aid fee and relevant handling fees. Even if she is sad, she can''t cause inconvenience to others because of her sadness. Zhang Nian took a deep breath, dragged his heavy and weak body and went to the toll office again. "Hello, Ms. Yang Yi''s fee is settled." The people in the toll office changed their shifts, but they found out from the system that the fees were priced in real time and settled clearly. Zhang Nian frowned slightly, "is it settled?" She asked affirmatively. The toll collector nodded, "the system shows that it is settled!" "Can you see who settled it?" Zhang Nian asked. Chapter 1684 The toll collector smiled with regret, "because it''s real-time pricing, I can''t see who handled the pricing account here." Zhang Nian frowned slightly and didn''t embarrass the toll collector. She just nodded, thanked him and turned away. Is it a senior?! Zhang Nian frowned and wondered if it was Qiao Jinnian, or... Could it be Jian Mo?! Zhang Nian decides to ask Qiao Jinnian first. If he is not a senior, it may be Jian mo. "Xiao Nian, are you finished signing?" Qiao Jinnian had a temporary emergency in the department just now. After he was busy, he came to find Zhang Nian and met him on the way. Zhang Nian nodded. "It''s all signed." After a pause, she seemed to ask, "senior, that... Is the cost..." "Don''t worry about the cost." Qiao Jinnian smiled comfortingly at the corners of his mouth. "Now you just adjust yourself and bury your aunt." Zhang Nianzhe said, "senior, I have saved money recently, and I have the ability to pay..." she lowered her eyes and didn''t dare to see Qiao Jinnian. She just said, "you''ve helped me a lot. I can''t continue to ask you to help me for no reason. How much money is in the pricing account?" Because Zhang Nian hung his eyes and didn''t see Qiao Jinnian''s face surprised and confused for a moment. When he figured out what it was, he looked at Zhang Nian''s eyes and became a little complicated. Zhang Nian hesitated when he saw that Qiao Jinnian had not answered. She knows that she is still so clear now, which is a kind of injury to Qiao Jinnian. However, there are some things that she can''t hurt others more because of her escape "Xiao Nian," said Qiao Jinnian after he endured it. "We are a family. Do you have to see me like this?!" Ambiguous words didn''t directly answer Zhang Nian''s questions, and they were clever enough to make her misunderstand. Qiao Jinnian guessed who it was, but now he decided to cheat Zhang Nian. On the one hand, he didn''t want her to continue to be trapped in the vortex. On the other hand, he would also find a chance to return the money to the person who should pay it back. Zhang Nian felt a little nervous. The urgency of not being clear made her uncomfortable. She raised her eyes and looked at Qiao Jinnian. She smiled at the corners of her mouth and endured it. She still said, "senior, I''ll type out the bill later. I''ll give you the money." She didn''t say anything, so she wanted to leave. "Xiao Nian," cried Qiao Jinnian in a slightly deep voice, "do you have to shut me out?" He leaned to look at Zhang Nian, who had stopped, looked at her pale little face, crossed the bottom of his eyes and said painfully, "I just want to take care of you, and I don''t want my aunt to go uneasy... Do you have to push me away?" The words hit Zhang Nian''s heart hard. She closed her eyes painfully and thought of the hope and urgency before her mother left. She was still helpless and her heart was constantly aching. "Xiao Nian, I don''t ask you to accept me immediately, but can you stop resisting me?" Qiao Jinnian laughed at himself sadly, "although I know it''s inappropriate to say this now. But sometimes, if you don''t say something... You really don''t have a chance." Zhang Nian''s nose was sour. She bit her lower lip and said, "senior, I don''t think about these now..." "Then don''t push me away, at least let me accompany you..." Qiao Jinnian''s voice showed a low attitude. "In this way, maybe I can have a chance when you want to think about it." Qiao Jinnian said so. Zhang Nian didn''t know how to refuse again. Sometimes, there are some things... No one can be weak and greedy. For example, at this moment, Zhang Nian subconsciously needs a person''s company... And Qiao Jinnian has become the most suitable candidate. "I want to be alone." Zhang Nian felt very contradictory and pulled down the corners of his mouth with self mockery, "thank you, senior." Qiao Jinnian didn''t call Zhang Nian any more. He looked at her and went to the toll office. "Who opened Yang Yi''s pricing account?" Qiao Jinnian asked. Because he was from our hospital, the person in the toll office happened to be quite familiar with Qiao Jinnian. He didn''t say anything, so he checked it for him. "It''s Chu Zixiao''s family." Sure enough! "When did it open?" Although Qiao Jinnian guessed it, he was still very surprised. "Morning..." the toll collector looked at the operation time and said, "around 10:30." Qiao Jinnian frowned slightly. It was his time in the emergency room If Chu Zixiao came, even if Zhang Nian couldn''t see who opened the price setting account, he would think it was Chu Zixiao first?! Thinking, Qiao Jinnian felt a little uncomfortable. After leaving the toll office, he went to the monitoring room and adjusted the monitoring before and after 10 o''clock outside the emergency room. Seeing that Zhang Nian didn''t see Chu Zixiao from beginning to end, he knew it in his heart. Chu Zixiao, since you like being the person behind you, don''t bother Xiaonian again. Xiaonian has worked hard because of her inner entanglement with you... I won''t tell her about your silent pay. People are selfish, aren''t they?! At least, Xiaonian and I will be happy as long as she slowly forgets you. But if Xiaonian is with you, the things about her uncle and aunt will always be a thorn in her heart and will never be happy Qiao Jinnian left the monitoring room. On the empty corridor, only his figure and footsteps echoed slightly and filled the space. The air became heavy and filled with a strange smell. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao just got out of court. While turning on her mobile phone, she explained things to the assistant on one side. He''s the first to open it. There''s a message. There''s a message After reading it, his face suddenly changed. He didn''t even have time to continue to explain. He had left in a hurry. "Chu debate, that..." before the assistant finished, Chu Zixiao''s figure had disappeared. Chu Zixiao got on the bus, hung up the Bluetooth headset and dialed Zhang Nian first, but no one answered. He called Jian Mo again. "The court is over?!" Jane Mo then asked. "Yes." Chu Zixiao answered, and the car had left the court. "What''s the situation there, Zhang Nian? How can it be so sudden?" "Human life is sometimes very fragile." Jian Mo heaved a sigh, paused and asked, "Zixiao, I''ll ask you, is it really impossible between you and Zhang Nian?" Chu Zixiao was silent and finally stopped at the roadside. Jane Mo didn''t hang up, just waiting. "Mo Mo, I hope it''s possible..." Chu Zixiao''s voice was filled with a touch of sadness. "But," Jane Mo said what he didn''t say for Chu Zixiao, "you know, it''s impossible!" Chapter 1685 "Mo Mo, the life of his parents lies in the middle..." Chu Zixiao closed his eyes and took a deep breath. "How can we cross?" Pain was evident in his voice. In fact, at the beginning, he wanted to make amends for Zhang Zhengtang. Even if others say he repeats, it doesn''t matter if he loses his principle for love But only then did he act, and Zhang Zhengtang died. The "feelings" that had been in the wind and rain turned into a pool of stagnant water. If Yang Yi left, everything... Turned into nothing. Chu Zixiao''s closed eyes trembled slightly, as if he was holding back some emotion and wanted to vent some emotion. Jane Mo was also silent. After a long time, she gritted her teeth and said, "in this case, let go!" "Huh?" Chu Zixiao suddenly opened his eyes. Jane Mo knew that it would be cruel to say so at the moment, but it seemed that she could only do so. "Since there is no possibility, let Zhang Nian''s life be completely removed from your imprisonment... Maybe she can be happy!" After a pause, she continued, "at least, she is happy, which is also a kind of happiness for you!" Chu Zixiao''s eyes were filled with endless sadness, but the corners of his mouth gradually filled with a shallow smile. Even that kind of smile is more astringent under sad. "Zixiao," said Jian Mo in a calm voice, "I hope everyone around me is happy. After what happened before, I also think it''s a pity if we fall in love but are not together." Jane Mo blushed. "But sometimes we really can''t control a lot of things..." she swallowed sadly and said with a deep breath, "sometimes putting it down may be the best." Jian Mo''s eyes are getting redder and redder. She feels that no matter what, there is nothing wrong with Zixiao from beginning to end. Wrong, just the helpless after missing, isn''t it?! "Zixiao," Jane Mo gently wiped her tears and said tightly around the corner of her mouth, "I''m sorry, because I made you work hard and caused more harm..." "If you don''t want to, I will hesitate." Chu Zixiao lowered his eyes and collected his self mockery from the bottom of his eyes, even if no one saw it at this moment, "so please don''t turn my regret into your burden." Jane Mo looked out of the window, and the high-rise buildings blocked her view It''s like that people are imprisoned in a radius. They clearly know that happiness is farther away, but they can''t reach it. Finally, Chu Zixiao didn''t go to Zhang Nian. He sat in the car alone and thought for a long time. Whether it was for Jian mo before or for Zhang Nian now... It seems that his persistence really only hurt and suffocated each other. The sun gradually moved to the west, and the sunset dyed the sky red and magnificent. However, such beauty cannot hide too many joys and sorrows in the world. Yang Yi was cremated. Accompanied by Qiao Jinnian, Zhang Nian took Yang Yi''s ashes back to Yuncheng and buried with Zhang Zhengtang. "Senior, thank you..." Zhang Nian is holding the train ticket in her hand, with a suitcase, a checked shirt, a pair of jeans, a pair of canvas shoes and a ponytail next to her... It seems that she has relieved herself of all the burden and only plans to take a trip that she says to go. Even if she just wants to escape or purify her heart. "Call me when you get there." Qiao Jinnian said softly, "when you come back, I''ll come and pick you up." Zhang Nian tried to pull at the corners of his mouth. He was not in the mood to refuse or say more. He just nodded, "I''m in the station." "Yes." Qiao Jinnian sighed, "have a safe trip." Zhang Nian took a deep breath, didn''t say anything, and took the suitcase to the entrance to check the ticket. After watching Zhang Nian enter the railway station, Qiao Jinnian took back his sight and went to the parking lot. After getting on the bus, he called Chu Zixiao, "do you have time? Meet?" Chu Zixiao listened to Qiao Jinnian''s voice. His eyes were deep. After being silent, he said to the end, "I''m in the law firm. I can''t leave it for the time being. You can come to me." "OK." Qiao Jinnian answered, "I''ll come to you now." "Yes." Qiao Jinnian hung up the phone, started the car and drove to Chu Tang Law Office ¡­¡­ Tang Yu put down the file and looked at Chu Zixiao''s seemingly calm appearance. In fact, he was not calm at all. He sighed secretly, "Zhang Nian went back to Yuncheng yesterday to bury Yang Yi. It seems that he came back at night and didn''t live in Yuncheng." "There are still some people over there. They are warm and cold. It''s good to come back." Chu Zixiao said calmly, took the file and began to turn it over. Tang Yu''s mouth moved back and forth and wanted to say something. At last, he turned out of Chu Zixiao''s office without saying anything. When ye fan saw Tang Yu coming out, he looked at the direction of Chu Zixiao''s office and said, "ah Yu, Zixiao can''t do this!" "Alas," Tang Yu sighed heavily, "let him be busy. If he is busy, he may get through it." As soon as Ye Fan heard this, he sighed deeply and said with some sigh, "I don''t know whether Zixiao has been lowered in recent years. What a spirited person you said before!" He said with another sigh, "you said, Han Zhenzhen is also married, but he always..." Tang Yu stared at Ye Fan, "you can''t catch up with your own woman. You still have time to worry about ah Xiao!" "Shit, I don''t care about my classmates and brothers. Do you sprinkle salt on my wound like this?" Ye Fan was so angry that he started immediately. Tang Yu flashed, and the two people looked at each other as if they had a tacit understanding. Then the joking smile on their face turned into a deep sigh. No love, in the end and have love, but love and have to be the same Qiao Jin has come very fast. Chu Zixiao asked someone to send two cups of coffee in before he asked, "are you looking for me..." Qiao Jinnian took out a check, looked at it and put it in front of Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao lowered his eyes and frowned slightly. He looked at Qiao Jinnian with a touch of doubt. "I cleared the bill from the hospital. This is all the expenses from your price setting account from the time my aunt was admitted to the hospital to the time she left." Qiao Jinnian said calmly, "Xiao Nian, I don''t think it''s appropriate to owe you this favor." Chu Zixiao didn''t speak, but looked at Qiao Jinnian and his eyes were getting deeper and deeper. Qiao Jinnian didn''t avoid it at all, and then said, "aunt entrusted Xiaonian to me before she died, and Xiaonian didn''t refuse... I think you should understand what you mean." After a pause, he looked at the check. "So, I think it''s necessary to return this money to you. In addition, I don''t want to read what I think of you." Chu Zixiao listens and sees the check He, maybe he should really give Zhang Nian a calm, so... At least her guilt for her parents will gradually decrease. There are so many regrets in life, who can not account for one or two?! Chapter 1686 "If you think this will cause the burden of Xiaonian," Chu Zixiao raised his eyes and said, "I''ll take this check." Qiao Jinnian didn''t expect Chu Zixiao to compromise so easily. In the few contacts, he knew Chu Zixiao''s character very well. The environment from small to large, coupled with his high spirit, created his proud nature Although, he has proud capital. He has made a plan. Even if Chu Zixiao doesn''t plan to give in or accept a check, he will let him understand that Xiaonian and he are no longer possible. But he''s taking it now. Does that mean he''s quitting? "Dr. Qiao," Chu Zixiao''s eyes looked at Qiao Jinnian deeply, "I don''t know if you fully understand some things... But whether you do or not, since you really decide to be with her, you should consider any aspect. Can you really do it, love her completely and live with her all your life?" "You don''t need to worry about this," Qiao Jinnian said with a smile. "You won''t have a chance." Listening to him, Chu Zixiao didn''t say anything more, but picked up the check and threw it into the drawer. Qiao Jinnian got up without saying anything. After seeing Chu Zixiao, he turned and wanted to leave. However, when the talent came to the door, Chu Zixiao''s cold voice came from behind: "Qiao Jinnian, don''t hurt Zhang Nian with past injuries, otherwise, I will make you regret today''s decision." Qiao Jinnian frowned slightly. He didn''t know what Chu Zixiao meant. Looking back at him, he just thought he understood and said, "didn''t you add all the past injuries to her?" He sneered, "how could I hurt her with your injury?" Then he didn''t say anything more. He opened the door of the office and left with a big step. Just like when he came, his footsteps were in a hurry... Qiao Jinnian didn''t hesitate to go. Without Chu Zixiao''s strong enemy, as long as he won''t disturb Zhang Nian again, his chances will be greater, won''t he?! When a person is vulnerable, the person who needs the company of a person most will most easily forget the past. What he needs to do is the person Zhang Nian needs now. After Qiao Jinnian left, Chu Zixiao put the check into the shredder. Some things are not about money, but... Peace of mind! Chu Zi Xiao went to the window, looking at the Wutong flower to be opened, gradually, the sight became deep. Perhaps, when he chose to open a law firm here, he was destined to be lonely A single tree of Wutong tree was destined to lick the wounds of love. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen looked at the stuffy Jane foam these days and stuffed Yan Yan to her. Jian Mo subconsciously took over and glared at Bei Chen. "Look at Yan Yan smiling. How do you mean? Depressed face?" Gu Beichen''s magnetic voice showed a trace of smile. Jane Mo lowered her eyes and saw the little princess grinning. Her black pupils were shining... Her little hands tied with Golden Topaz were waving constantly. "I hope my Yan Yan will grow up and have a smooth relationship." Jane Mo sat down and teased the little princess. Gu Beichen sat down beside her, swept over Jian Mo''s shoulder, looked at the little princess who smiled more happily because Jian Mo spoke, and said with deep eyes: "Whoever dares to make Yan uncomfortable, I''ll make him uncomfortable!" Jane Mo glanced at Gu Beichen and was amused by him. "I don''t think I can see you at all." "Huh?" Gu Beichen looked puzzled. "J takes the lead, behind Xiaojie Hall..." Jian Mo said with an eyebrow. "Who do you think can bully Yan?" Gu Beichen smiled, and his face was obviously helpless. "The whole world robbed my daughter with me. I said I was very sad!" After a pause, he looked at Jian Mo with deep eyes and said, "fortunately, now there are fewer people who distract from you and rob you with me!" A gentle kiss fell on Jane Mo''s cheek. Even though the old husband and wife have been for so many years, Jane Mo''s heart is throbbing with the tenderness of Beichen. "Ah Chen..." "Huh?" "I think sometimes I''m too happy, so I urgently hope that the people around me are happy. Sometimes it also puts pressure on them." "Yes." Jane Mo drooped her eyes and sighed, "in the future, no matter who it is or the children..." her fingers gently grabbed Yan Yan''s small hand and said, "their own happiness always needs to be fought and chosen by themselves. Others should not interfere too much." "Yes." Gu Beichen answered again, "you just need to put all your thoughts on me." "..." Jian Mo pulled out from the corner of her mouth and stared at Gu Beichen''s line of sight, full of a smile. This is her man, anytime She''s crazy. He''s crazy with her. She smiled and he was happy with her She was sad, he accompanied her... Well, not with her sad, but he would use all kinds of ways to make her happy. In this way, this life is enough! Jane Mo has nothing to ask for now, just hope... When Xiaojie and Yan Yan grow up, they can be happy and find their own partner. And Xiao Yan in heaven Jane Mo leaned on Gu Beichen''s shoulder, her eyes fell outside, and her thoughts gradually withdrew. Xiao Yan, you are an angel... You will find your own happiness in heaven, right?! ¡­¡­ "Dr. he, the suitor in your marriage is here again..." Zhang Xinya and he Yining just came out of the building. They saw Li Yunze leaning on the car with his hands copying his trouser pockets and slightly drooping his eyes. They didn''t know what they were thinking. Why should Ning shrug, say hello to Zhang Xinya and go to Li Yunze''s side. Hearing the footsteps, Li Yunze raised his eyes to see he Yining coming. With a faint smile in his mouth, he got up and opened the co pilot''s door for her. "Well, why are you getting more and more idle?" Why would he rather see Li Yunze get on the bus and then ask. "My priority now is," Li Yunze looked at he Yining and said the second half with a grin, "... Let my wife feel the taste of being chased!" He Yining was a little happy in his heart, but he hummed with a proud look. Li Yunze looked at her charming appearance and deepened his smile. He started the car and walked outside the hospital. "Wait, go to the supermarket to buy something and go back to cook?" He Yining didn''t answer, looking thoughtful. Li Yunze glanced at her, frowned slightly and asked, "what''s the matter?" "I''m thinking about what Zhang Xinya just said." He Yining looks at Li Yunze. "What?" "She said that my marriage suitor came again..." why would you rather see Li Yunze look at her and then say, "it''s a little awkward." "Isn''t it good to enjoy the feeling of falling in love in marriage?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "Good is good, but there seems to be something missing..." why Ning''s voice shows a hint of slow down. "Well, then?" Li Yunze asked very cooperatively. He Yining swallowed involuntarily and said, "Li Yunze, why don''t we divorce? Then you chase me again!" Chapter 1687 As soon as Li Yunze heard it, he said, "he Yining, do you think I will repeat the mistakes?" "Huh?" Why was Ning stunned and frowned. Li Yunze glanced at he Yining and said, "when Beichen divorced and proposed again, he missed four and a half years with Jian Mo and didn''t witness Xiaojie''s growth." He smiled. "Do you think I''ll let myself do the same?" "I won''t study abroad and I''m not pregnant..." he Yining said firmly, "so we are different from Beichen and Momo." "The problem is that there is a wolf like Jin shaosi around us!" Li Yunze raised his eyebrow, "and ah, don''t think about those who have nothing. I won''t divorce you first, and then what!" He glanced at he Yining, who was dissatisfied with his words, and said with a smile, "I''m not stupid!" "..." he Yining didn''t deceive Li Yunze and said he was very satisfied. "If you have a little thought, don''t play in front of me..." Li Yunze said, turning the steering wheel and getting off the underground parking lot of the supermarket. "Just have a good love with me in marriage. If you don''t enjoy the love in marriage, it can only be your loss... If you want a divorce, I''ll tell you clearly, there''s no way! Don''t dream!" "..." why did Ning show his teeth and look aside instead of Li Yunze. Li Yunze stopped the car, got off and went to the co pilot. He opened the door and attached himself. He Yining untied his seat belt and took her out of the car. Without letting go, he took her hand and went to the elevator. "Eat spicy crayfish at night, huh?" Li Yunze asked, "I''ll match you with a bottle of ice coke." "No!" He Yining said the terms when Li Yunze looked at her, "two bottles!" It has not been reached. Think carefully. At least take the opportunity to talk about the conditions. Li Yunze smiled, "you said you were like this. It would be a shame if you let them watch one by one..." "The problem is not one by one!" Why should I rather hum, and say, "I want to eat three kilograms!" "You can eat up to five kilograms." Ning Ze said with a slightly tight voice. Why is Ning satisfied? Sometimes she can talk to Li Yunze about a small condition. She thinks it''s better than nothing. In fact, she can drink coke or something at ordinary times. But I don''t know whether Li Yunze has been staring too hard recently, or whether she has a tendency to be abused. Every time she doesn''t get his consent, she seems to bear a great psychological burden and guilt. According to Yan Yan''s words, she was poisoned by Li Yunze again! Well, Yanyan unconsciously uses "again"! Alas Li Yunze held hands all the way to the supermarket, one cart, one shopping. Well, they are against others. Women push carts, men choose things! "Two more vegetables?" Seeing that the dishes were good, Li Yunze took a handful and looked at he Yining and asked, "just eating spicy crayfish, I''m afraid your stomach can''t stand it at night." "Can''t you stand this, doctor?" Why would you rather pick your eyebrows. Li Yunze smiled and looked back. After taking two vegetables, he went to buy some ingredients to be used the next morning. "I''m not going to stay with you at night." Why would you rather see Li Yunze buy the flour of steamed stuffed bun and speak immediately. "Did I tell you to stay with me at night?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "Or..." he leaned over with an ambiguous look in his eyes and asked in he Yining''s ear, "do you want to live with me?" He Yining blushed. In addition, in public, he immediately pushed Li Yunze away in anger. When he looked around subconsciously, he saw someone looking at what they were saying. His face was as red as the tomato Li Yunze had just bought. "Li Yunze, can you stop taking meat hemp as fun?" He Yining said gnashing his teeth. "No." Li Yunze said with a smile. "..." he Yining has seen Li Yunze''s cheekiness recently, but every time she is right, she can only be held by him, which is very frustrating. He Yining looked at Li Yunze''s skillful selection of ingredients, hummed in his nose and murmured discontentedly, "you said it. I will never stay tonight." She thought she said it in a low voice, but Li Yunze heard it with sharp ears. Li Yunze looked back, lowered his eyes and was still muttering something. He Yining smiled at the corners of his mouth and didn''t say anything?! But when he Yining thought he would force her to stay at night, Li Yunze didn''t! Although I don''t want to do anything, it seems that I can''t deceive myself. But why is it so naive. Li Yunze said he wouldn''t let him stay overnight, but he didn''t say he didn''t go there for the night. When the little white rabbit was trapped in the arms of the big gray wolf, the little white rabbit found that she was really naive "Li Yunze, let me go!" He Yining, who was pressed into bed, struggled. "I''m not stupid. Let go of you at this time?" He Ning''s eyebrows and feet are bound to death. He Yining''s breath had begun to floss, stared and shouted, "what do you want to do?" "You said I want to do..." Li Yunze deliberately paused, then hot eyes, ambiguous low voice asked, "... What?" "..." why would you rather be speechless. Of course, she didn''t want to be speechless, but... Her mouth was sealed by Li Yunze. Then, when he deliberately provoked and dyed the air in the room pink, he Yining completely knew... What did he want to do?! Two people with disordered breath, under the hot movement, the cells in the body are ready to explode. It seems to be natural, and it seems that both of them are eager for a long time In fact, Li Yunze didn''t intend to eat why Ning so soon. But this woman had the idea of divorce first. He felt it necessary to tell her that love belongs to love, and there should be obligations between husband and wife. He Yining, who was provoked by his fiery enthusiasm, has forgotten everything at the moment and can only sink into everything given by Li Yunze. She looked at the man sweating like rain. When his body was filled, his heart didn''t seem to be empty. If, in the past, she really loved this man for 20 years, how did this man face the car accident and she forgot to love him? He Yining had some wandering thoughts and inexplicably crossed the "diary" related things in his mind. However, when she wanted to think deeply, she could only think of what she saw and write one by one There seems to be another diary that is the symptom of things?! "Yining..." Li Yunze asked in a hoarse voice when he was about to be released at last. "Shall we have two or two?" Chapter 1688 "Huh?" He Yining''s thoughts were suddenly pulled back. Li Yunze''s eyes were deep, and she was slightly confused. She gently opened her mouth, "let''s have another two or two? We''re just a child now. It''s a little too lonely." Why Ning bit his lower lip, as if he felt Li Yunze trembling because he forbeared "Li Yunze..." "Huh?" Li Yunze answered gently. He Yining doesn''t know whether it''s because he just thought of the diary. He felt a little flustered and uneasy, "well... Will you always be good to me? That is, you''ll always be good to me!" He Yining bared her teeth. What is she asking? "I''ll always be nice to you..." Li Yunze kissed he Yining''s earrings. "It''s only good for you." He Yining is very happy in his heart. It has nothing to do with memory. He Yining is instinctively happy at this moment. It is said that women are easy to coax, and a little sweet talk of men can make them deceive themselves or indulge... He Yining thinks it''s right at all. At least, at this moment, she was willing to put aside some problems she couldn''t think of and nodded. "Well, let''s have a baby!" He Yining''s words fell. Li Yunze couldn''t bear it anymore and completely released his enthusiasm Midsummer night, intoxicated people''s eyes, but also confused people''s hearts. He Yining fell asleep in Li Yunze''s arms. Before going to bed, she knew... Her relationship with Li Yunze was close to another level! Three months in Huakang, whether it was Li Yunze''s intention or the original coincidence, it was the biggest sublimation of their previous relationship. Even if I return to Shuya now, those three months have become an indelible habit and memory. ¡­¡­ The plane crossed the dark night and landed at Los Angeles International Airport under the guidance of signal lights. Xiao Jing got off the plane tired and went directly to the parking lot to pick up the car. After five months of "assignment", Xiao Jing felt that as a vice president, he had two jobs... One as a boss and one as an assistant. "Erjing, come and have a drink." Xiao Jing had hardly arrived at the parking lot when Xiao Nan called. "No, go home and sleep." Xiao Jing was a little angry. Xiao Nan smiled, "no, you said that since you became the vice president of the emperor, we have few opportunities to get together... If you do, our feelings will be weaker and weaker!" "Ha ha!" Xiao Jing sneered. He just wanted to talk and suddenly turned back. "Vigilance is good," Xiao Nan put down the phone. "I haven''t been lost by the smell of money." "Sister, why are you here?" Xiao Jing smiled helplessly. Xiao Nan stepped forward, "I just got off the plane and came back from Longdao..." "Brother Xiao and sister-in-law have been in Longdao recently?" Xiao Jing asked. "Yes." Xiao Nan answered, "let''s go and have a drink together?" "You hit me like this. You can''t beat me if you don''t go?" Xiao Jing sighed, "I''ll drive and devil" s kiss will meet. " "Good!" Xiao Nan answered and went to her car. They left the airport one by one and went to devil "s kiss. It''s hard for five Xiao to get together now, mainly because Xiao Jing is too busy under the pressure of Gu Beichen "I heard that Chen Shao sent you to T city because there is a little girl over there?" Xiao Nan began to talk when Xiao Jing drank a lot. "I''m going to work!" Xiao Jing glanced sideways at Xiao Nan. "Elder sister, I''ve trained since childhood. It''s in my bones and I can''t lose it." The implication is, don''t use his drunkenness as a pretext. Xiao Nan smiled, "I''ve been sorting out some things recently. It just has something to do with your little girl. Do you want to listen?" "She''s not from my family!" Xiao Jing glanced at Xiao Nan again, took the beer in front of him and drank it hard. Xiao Qiang and others looked at each other and looked at Xiao Jing one after another. No matter what Xiao Changqing thought of raising the Dragon owl at the beginning, when he could cultivate five Xiao, it was a real cultivation After all, only when the play is done enough and true, when you put yourself into it, will others not guess what? Because of this, Wu Xiao knew from an early age that their lives were those of the Dragon owl. This also makes them love, but they have no love! Now Xiao Jing follows Gu Beichen. Maybe he will become the only one in five Xiao who can start and end his life. Naturally, the remaining four people hope Xiao Jing can be happy without interfering with him. Among brothers and sisters, at least one is happy. Maybe they will also feel that there is less regret in life. Xiao Jing is drunk! Maybe I''m too tired, or I want to get drunk! After all, Xiao Jing seldom gets drunk "Elder sister," Xiao Heng said faintly, "I think the second scene is emotional injury." "Yes." Xiao Nan answered. "Why?" Xiao Qiang couldn''t figure it out. "Didn''t Zhao Qianyu like Erjing very much before? Why did he suddenly leave, and Erjing also caught up with him? Why did he suddenly feel cold and incomprehensible?" Xiao Nan looked at Xiao Jing with a deep sight and slowly said, "Zhao Qianyu''s background is not simple. The other party doesn''t want to be involved with Erjing, so Zhao Qianyu can only leave..." "Are we afraid of the background?" Xiao Yu spoke coldly. Don''t say Chen Shao''s side, that is, brother Xiao. I''m afraid I won''t pay attention to the so-called background. "All right, let Erjing sleep!" Xiao Nan said and turned around, "a woman is his own. It''s up to him whether he wants it or not. What are we worrying about?" Xiao Heng and others shrugged their shoulders. After seeing Xiao Jing one by one, they left with Xiao Nan. At the moment when the door closed, Xiao Jing slowly opened his eyes... At the bottom of his eyes, there were some drunken and hazy, vaguely sullen. The next day, the heat wave in midsummer swept through the air early in the morning. In such a hot atmosphere, we just want to enjoy free air conditioning and relieve our irritability when we arrive at the company quickly. But early in the morning, several meetings of emperor group filled the whole company with a burning torment from top to bottom. "Vice President Xiao won''t let anyone live as soon as he comes back..." someone wailed. Jian Mo just came to find Shen Chu. When she heard the people in the design department looking depressed one by one, she asked suspiciously, "what''s the matter?" "Vice President Xiao came back and held several meetings in succession, scolding from top to bottom." Shen Chu handed the design drawing to Jian Mo, "I guess your husband was upset when he came back and became a shopkeeper." Jane Mo smiled. "It''s Xiao Jing''s coming back..." she opened the design drawing and said, "today Xiaojie school has an activity that needs his father''s participation, so president Gu passed." Shen Chu shrugged, his face full of sympathy for Xiao Jing. "I''ll take the design first," said Jane Mo, rolling it up and putting it in the drawing bucket. "I''ll fix it later, and I''ll meet you again." "OK." Shen Chu sent Jian Mo away. Jane Mo went to the underground parking lot. High heels echoed slightly in the open place. There was an inexplicable tension in the air. Jane Mo frowned slightly and got on the car without thinking much. After all, this is the imperial range. It''s just that she just pulled over her seat belt and was ready to fasten it The door of the rear seat was suddenly opened, and a person sat up. Her subconscious nerves tightened and "ah" blurted out Chapter 1689 After Jian Mo exclaimed, she saw the man sitting on the table and slightly frowned, "Zhao Qianyu?!" "Young lady..." Zhao Qianyu felt guilty. "Well, I''m sorry to scare you." "Why are you here?" Jane Mo looked around and frowned. Zhao Qianyu is not an employee of the emperor now. According to reason, she has no way to enter the underground parking lot. Zhao Qianyu raised his hand. Jian Mo saw that there was something similar to SD card in her hand and thought that she came down by the recognized elevator. "Young lady, we said as we walked." Zhao Qianyu has some eagerness in his eyes. Jane Mo was slightly confused, nodded, started the car and left the emperor group. Just as she passed the exit camera, Jian Mo saw Zhao Qianyu sliding down from the rearview mirror, forming a dead angle with the outside. Jane Mo twisted her eyebrows and became more and more confused about Zhao Qianyu''s behavior. "Now that you have entered the emperor, how......" Jane Mo asked. Zhao Qianyu first looked around carefully and then said, "I came to find Chen Shao, but I didn''t expect him to come today..." as she said, her face appeared anxious, "I didn''t expect Xiao Jing to come back today!" "..." Jian Mo looked at Zhao Qianyu again from the rearview mirror. "Can I ask, what''s your situation now?" Zhao Qianyu touched the corner of his mouth, took a deep breath, then gritted his teeth and said, "I met Xiao Jing several times in T city before. I heard that he would come back at the weekend, so I came in advance." Speaking of this, it is obvious that Zhao Qianyu has anger on his face. Jian Mo is getting more and more confused by Zhao Qianyu. I don''t know if it''s because she experienced too much when she was with Gu Beichen, so she can always think of something she didn''t have. Why does she feel that Zhao Qianyu''s behavior is very strange now?! Zhao Qianyu felt Jian Mo''s doubts and thought about asking her for help. He also knew that Jian Mo was very smart and it was impossible to fool casually. He bit his teeth and simply said, "because of my own reasons, I can''t be with Xiao Jing." Jane Mo twisted her eyebrows, stopped at the red light intersection, looked back at Zhao Qianyu and asked, "what''s your purpose today?" "I......" Zhao Qianyu also felt very contradictory. Jane Mo takes back her sight. Because of Chu Zixiao''s and Zhang Nian''s affairs, she now feels that President Gu''s words are right. Two people''s feelings, others can only say two words, can''t work hard. If the parties themselves don''t work hard, others can help at most, but it''s impossible to really tie them together Thinking, the green light is on, and Jane Mo slides slowly with the traffic. "I know Xiao Jing has a background and is not afraid of trouble." Zhao Qianyu said, his eyes a little red, quickly turned his head to one side, crossed the corner of his mouth at the right time and said with self mockery, "in fact, I don''t like him so much... But I used to be grateful and read it all the time. I thought I liked it very much." "Like it or not, don''t tell others..." Jane Mo said, "only yourself can''t cheat." "..." Zhao Qianyu lowered his eyes, "yes, I don''t like it. Only I can''t cheat." Jian Mo sighed and called mu Xiaoran and said she would go back later. After hanging up, she turned directly to Jane Jie''s school Jian Mo didn''t ask any more, and Zhao Qianyu was silent all the time. "Thank you, madam." Zhao Qianyu said softly after seeing Gu Beichen''s car. Jane Mo shook her head with a smile. When Zhao Qianyu got off the bus, she said, "you need to fight for what you want. If you really can''t fight for it, it can only be a pity of life, but if you can fight for it, you''d better fight for it!" Zhao Qianyu put his hand on the door, lowered his eyes and nodded with self mockery. She seemed to be afraid that she would reveal any emotion. At the moment of nodding, she also opened the door, and then got into Gu Beichen''s car Jane Mo didn''t know how Zhao Qianyu got on Gu Beichen''s car when the central control lock was locked. She was stunned at first and then grinned secretly. I''m afraid that all the locks in the world can''t prevent the "people with a heart" who are thinking about! Jian Mo sent a message to Gu Beichen: you have a "gift" in your car. Don''t look for me when you are frightened! Gu Beichen frowned slightly when he saw the information: gift? Jane: I''ll go to the company in the evening, but I''m going to smile! Gu Beichen can''t laugh or cry. His car is at school, that is to say... Mo''er came to school and put a gift on his car without a car key? Gu Beichen''s ink pupil was deep and installed a mobile phone. He went to the headmaster''s office and said something before he went to the parking lot. Slowly approaching, Gu Beichen''s eyes flashed like a torch across the car and already "smelled" some breath. He walked slowly and steadily from beginning to end, as if he didn''t know anything. He opened the door and got into the car. He glanced in the rearview mirror and started the car. "It''s brave of you to follow this time." Gu Beichen spoke coldly. Zhao Qianyu''s face tightened. There was not much accident for Gu Beichen to say so as soon as he saw her. At first, although she stole things to attract Xiao Jing''s attention, she didn''t think that Gu Beichen would leave her in the emperor if she didn''t check anything. "I have to." Zhao Qianyu bit his lower lip. Gu beichenjun''s face was so cold, "Zhao Qianyu, do you really think Xiao Jing didn''t know you were in Los Angeles? Or do you think he didn''t know your background?" Zhao Qianyu''s face changed several times. "He... How could he know?" Gu Beichen looked across the rearview mirror again. There was an obvious sneer at the bottom of his eyes. After flashing, he looked back, "there''s nothing about Xiao Jing that I don''t know... And there''s nothing about me that he doesn''t know!" In a word, it has explained everything. Zhao Qianyu said, "why do you keep breathing?" "If you don''t finish the last order, you can leave?" Gu Beichen said coldly, "Zhao Qianyu, do you really think you can leave after completing this task?" "It promised me!" Zhao Qianyu is obviously a little anxious. Gu Beichen drove indifferently to the emperor group, and his voice was calm and slowly opened his mouth: "I can guarantee that this task is completed, and all waiting for you... Is death!" Zhao Qianyu''s face turned white. In fact, she knew it in her heart, but she had extravagant hopes. No one who has been trained like her can finally get rid of the ''ghost''! "Even if the result is death, I......" Zhao Qianyu said with a layer of water mist in his eyes. "I''ll try!" Chapter 1690 Gu Beichen looked at Zhao Qianyu again from the rearview mirror and didn''t speak. Some things are really doomed from the beginning. Zhao Qianyu began to deceive him and Xiao Jing, but she didn''t find out that she was trained by the "ghost", so that some things are now occupied, but they can''t be recovered. There are really not so many chances and luck in this world. This is also why Xiao Jing came back early this time and didn''t mention Zhao Qianyu with him. "Zhao Qianyu, don''t let Xiao Jing down." Gu Beichen stopped at the roadside near the emperor. One side is the subway station. The business circle with people coming and going is a little noisy. "Chen Shao..." Zhao Qianyu''s eyes were red. At this moment, it seemed that the last rope she wanted to grasp was about to break. "Living well is more important than anything." Gu Beichen''s voice was always calm without too many waves. "If people die, what else is possible?!" Zhao Qianyu''s eyes were wet, and his eyes were covered with tears. "Xiao Jing doesn''t say, ask or chase..." Gu Beichen''s eyes fell on the emperor''s towering building in front and slowly opened his mouth, "why should you make him suffer in the future?" Zhao Qianyu''s eyelashes trembled violently. Even because of resistance, the corners of her mouth trembled and couldn''t speak. "I know what you want from me, and I won''t promise." Gu Beichen Mo Tong gradually became familiar with it. "Xiao Jing is my brother. I can fight for his happiness... But I won''t be blind because of brotherhood and fight for a result that makes him impossible to be happy." Gu Beichen glanced back and said, "although what you want is not the whole emperor, but a project involving the interests of people above you... What if it is given to you? People''s desire will expand!" He looked at Zhao Qianyu''s changing face and continued, "in fact, you have thought about whether the people above will take advantage of your ''relationship'' with Xiao Jing, again and again!" The final result is either Xiao Jing''s death or Zhao Qianyu''s death! He doesn''t care about Zhao Qianyu''s death. But Xiao Jing... No! "Let''s go!" Gu Beichen took back his sight. His carved face was completely cold and impersonal. His humanity is only given to the people around him. He came back from the Mo palace. He has no extra human feelings for irrelevant people Besides, Zhao Qianyu may let Xiao Jingyi die without looking back?! "I just want to work hard. I want to work hard for the future of Xiao Jing and me!" Zhao Qianyu seemed unwilling to say, "finally, if I really want to die to end, I will let Xiao Jing completely stop thinking about me." Gu Beichen made a light ''ah'' sound, and his sight became deeper and deeper. He said, "get off!" Zhao Qianyu''s mouth moved back and forth and wanted to say something, but she knew that Gu Beichen would not give her a chance. She closed her eyes, wiped away the tears from her face and got out of the car. Gu Beichen looked at Zhao Qianyu as he entered the subway station with the flow of people, and his ink pupil was dim. She still doesn''t know Xiao Jing. Finally, if you really want to go to the point where Zhao Qianyu can only be solved by death, the result must be... Xiao Jingming knows not to do it. Therefore, now Xiao Jing has chosen to get out, which is the best choice for him or Zhao Qianyu. Gu Beichen took back his sight and started the car to the Emperor With a "Ding" sound, the elevator arrived at the top floor of the emperor. When the elevator door opened, he heard the voice of Xiao Jing''s reprimand... Gu Beichen frowned slightly and looked at Susan leaning against the door of the Secretary''s room. "Chen Shao." Seeing Gu Beichen coming, Susan got up and said hello. "All morning?!" While Gu Beichen made a noise, he entered the office. "Almost." Susan turned to get the documents to be approved before she went to Gu Beichen''s office. "Chen Shao, Xiao Jing is eating gunpowder?" "When you hold your breath in your heart, you always have to send it out so that people can feel comfortable." Gu Beichen looked at the time. It was almost noon. He simply pressed the inside line to Xiao Jing, "wait down to my office." There was a pause for a few seconds before Xiao Jing''s dull voice came. "Chen Shao, do you need to give Xiao Jing a holiday?" Susan was worried. "I think he needs a cushion." "No." Gu Beichen opened the document, glanced, took the signing pen and signed, "he''s full of work arrangements." "Ah?!" Susan was a little surprised. Gu Beichen closed the document and said, "from now on, at least half a year, don''t give him any leisure..." after a pause, he slowly leaned back in his chair and said with deep eyes, "in addition, he is not allowed to go abroad!" Susan didn''t know what had happened. She looked at Gu Beichen with a puzzled face. Gu Beichen didn''t explain anything, but said faintly, "if you need to go abroad, I''ll go there... Xiao Jing will tie me to death in Los Angeles." Just talking, Xiao Jing knocked on the door and came in. He stood at the door and looked up at the sight of Gu Beichen. He also took his hand on the doorknob and clenched it. "You go out first!" Gu Beichen looked back at Susan. Susan nodded, took the signed document and turned around... When she passed Xiao Jing, she tightened her eyebrows and looked at him. "Chen Shao." Xiao Jing sat down opposite Gu Beichen and sighed softly. "Decided?" Gu Beichen asked. Xiao nodded. "Now that it''s decided, let go completely." Gu Beichen''s voice was always flat, but it was indisputable. "It''s muddy and watery. You should be very clear that she was the first to hurt." Xiao Jing took a deep breath and nodded. "In order to make you paralyze yourself as soon as possible, next, in addition to the emperor having to deal with it in person abroad, I will go there and take full responsibility for the rest." Gu Beichen said casually. "..." Xiao Jing pulled at the corners of his mouth, "Chen Shao, isn''t this appropriate?" He was immediately dissatisfied, "I''m not weak enough to paralyze myself with work. You obviously take the opportunity to give yourself reasons and be a shopkeeper." "Yes?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows, and his thin lips overflowed with a shallow smile. "In fact, you don''t think it''s used... I''m for you to get rid of the pain. It''s a kind of trust... Is it more comfortable for me to hand over the emperor to you in such a period?" "I believe you all day!" Xiao Jing make complaints about the sound of Tucao, then he looks out of the window. The emperor''s building is very high. On the top floor, there is no shelter. And standing in such a high place, you can''t control everything. There are always some things in this world that you can''t grasp Nor is there anything without regret. For Chu Zixiao and Xiao Jing... Regret seems to become helpless and powerless. "Chen Shao," Xiao Jing said, "in fact, I miss my time in England with you now..." a touch of astringency crossed the corner of his mouth, "at least, wanton!" Without Xiao Changqing''s constraint and brother Xiao''s call at any time... Just accompany Chen Shao to make a small fuss, and then drink! Chapter 1691 Gu Beichen seems to have suddenly pulled his thoughts back to the streets of Leeds at that time He just came out of the Mo palace and abandoned himself. It seems that there is no point in living a human life. Every day in the bar, he fights when he disagrees with each other and hangs lottery all day... However, only when he feels pain can he feel a little consciousness. Gu Beichen looked deeper and deeper. His arm supported the armrest of the chair. He leaned back on the chair in a lazy and evil posture, and his sight also fell out of the window. In fact, the Dragon boss just met him by chance. Maybe it''s also fate. For people like him, where can they meddle in other people''s affairs? But he took care of it! Finally, he left Xiao Jing with him, accompanied him to fall, and then stood up He regarded Xiao Jing as a real brother. Different from the feelings of boss long, Yunze and Nanfang, they are superior and subordinate, but they are also life-threatening friendship. "At that time..." Xiao Jing lay back in his chair and smiled at the corners of his mouth. He didn''t continue to say what he was going to say, but looked at Gu Beichen and said, "in the past, you couldn''t mention whether it was mo palace, Shi Shaoqin or Britain." After a pause, Xiao Jing''s smile grew bigger and bigger, "but now? Even Shi Shaoqin, you have become enemies and friends." Gu Beichen glanced at Xiao Jing and didn''t answer. Yes, because of Mo''er, he came out of the darkness and got the sunshine. Also because of Mo''er... His current relationship with Shi Shaoqin is also enemy and friend. There are regrets and darkness in life, but in the end... He is lucky. Because he was lucky to meet a woman named Jian Mo, and more fortunately... He met earlier than Shi Shaoqin. Therefore, he was reborn from nirvana, and Shi Shaoqin continued in his dark world. Gu Beichen was a little proud when he thought of it. But what he didn''t expect is that the world has both regret and luck. The definition of regret and luck is often the same thing, but different from the same person. For example... Star is a pity for Gu Beichen and Jian mo. But for Shi Shaoqin, it was lucky While waiting for the servant to squeeze strange juice, star rubbed the blue agate stone with his small hand. It seems that this has become his casual action, but it has become a habit. Shi Shaoqin looked at Star gently, with a shallow smile on his pretty mouth, showing doting. Does star also feel the breath of his parents, so he especially likes to play with this agate stone whether he has memory or not?! "Stone..." star said with bright eyes, "I''ll plant it together later!" What kind? Star didn''t say, but Shi Shaoqin understood. The two acres of land in the back mountain have been fully opened, and the soil specially planted with sunflowers has been fully filled and turned. Two acres of land is unrealistic for a child to grow, but star will pull Shi Shaoqin to participate, even if there are many people around to help. Shi juechi drank tea, sat under the temporary sunshade and watched Shi Shaoqin grow sunflowers with star. The more he looked, the more he wanted to laugh. Who can imagine that the master of the Mo palace, who is unwilling to be provoked by the people on the way, is planting sunflowers in short sleeved shorts printed with sunflower patterns, a straw hat and a child''s dress, Shi Shaoqin, who looks like a father and son?! It''s estimated that if you kill everyone, you won''t believe it. Suddenly When the "roar" came, everyone was subconsciously nervous and looked at the power grid one after another. The Mo palace is on an island. Except for the places set aside, the forest is blocked by power grids, just to prevent beasts or something from suddenly entering the safe area. However, because the sound appeared so close, everyone was still nervous under the sense of danger. "Cat..." star''s little hand suddenly pointed somewhere and said excitedly, "big cat!" Everyone looked and saw an adult tiger wandering around outside the power grid. Although there was no hostility, it was obviously on alert. If someone occupied its territory, he was ready to attack at any time. "Roar..." star laughed and imitated the tiger''s low roar, shouting excitedly, "big cat!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Everyone was silent and looked at star one after another. The corners of his mouth smoked uncontrollably. Everyone thought that star was the only one who said the tiger was a big cat Star Xu is very happy to see the "big cat". His beautiful little face is full of laughter and looks up slightly. The sun shines on his face, full of hope, just like sunflowers. Shi Shaoqin frowned invisibly and thought: it seems that he will realize that tigers and cats are different if he wants to bring star into contact with danger! However, what Shi Shaoqin didn''t expect at the moment is that star is a person who is curious about something and will delve into it. He took him to the danger to make him understand the difference between wild animals and small domestic animals. Later, he seriously and systematically learned the characteristics and characteristics of animals. So, later... A little woman was very excited when she heard that star had a little pet, but when she saw star''s pet, her face collapsed! ¡­¡­ Los Angeles, Shuya hospital. He Yining went to the canteen to buy a glass of juice and went back to the office. As he walked, he chatted with yanmiao on wechat, "I''m on day shift today and big night tomorrow." Yanmiao put the stethoscope away and stuffed it into his pocket before he said, "have dinner that night..." Why should I rather say, "OK!" Yanmiao suddenly remembered something and said, "if you want to bring your husband, I don''t mind, you can!" Why rather smiled. I don''t know if it''s the reason why the two people have had a deep exchange for several times. Why Ning found that she now accepts the fact that Li Yunze is her husband. "I brought someone. You''re single. Aren''t you afraid to pierce your heart?" Why would you rather ask with a smile. Yanmiao rolled over his eyes, "I just want to see you and your husband show. I can''t point out that I pierced my heart and immediately pulled a passer-by to get married. From then on, I also stepped into the ranks of abusing single dogs." He Yining listened to yanmiao''s angry words and couldn''t laugh anymore. When she was sending her voice message, she didn''t know that yanmiao was about to go wild at the moment. "Huo Qishen, get the fuck out of my five meters away!" Yanmiao glared at Huo Qishen and turned to leave. "What''s your attitude?" Huo Qi was deeply dissatisfied and followed yanmiao forward. "I kindly came to see you. Are you too impersonal?" Since Huo Qishen got drunk last time and almost had the last taboo behavior at home, yanmiao didn''t have any good face for him. There was no good face. "Yan Miao, why don''t you take me?" Huo Qishen licked his face and said, "although I''m not your husband, I''m your boyfriend and girlfriend... Take me there. It''s better than pulling a passer-by, don''t you think?" Yanmiao stopped, looked at Huo Qishen with a sneer and asked, "I can get married with any passer-by. Will you ''boyfriend'' marry me?" Chapter 1692 Huo Qishen grinned, raised his eyebrows and asked, "what if the passer-by you pull is an old man or married? You get married?" He didn''t seem to see that yanmiao''s face was dark, so he said, "at least I''m single and have temperament. I have a good face, don''t I?!" "..." yanmiao ''ha ha'', glanced at Huo Qishen, turned and left, "don''t follow me, I''m very busy!" Huoqi sighed deeply and did not follow. Just because you don''t follow at the moment doesn''t mean you don''t follow at dinner at night "Huo Qishen, if you do this, I will feel that I alienate you. You suddenly find that you like me more than Fang Xiran." Yan Miao helplessly looked at Huo Qishen who opened the front passenger''s door and said, "just say, do you like me?" "I''m a boyfriend!" Huo Qishen lay on the roof and said with a smile. "Ha ha!" Yanmiao rolled his eyes. "In my eyes, men are patients and ordinary people in terms of occupation." After a pause, her voice said coldly, "in life, it''s your own and not your own... Excuse me, what kind are you now?" Huo Qi was deeply stunned. He didn''t know what kind he belonged to, so he heard yanmiao continue: "obviously, you''re not a patient at the moment, so you''re an ordinary person. Ordinary people in my life are mine and not mine... But you''re not mine!" "Huo Qishen was unable to refute for a while. Yan Miao sneered, "you can roll!" "Go away! OK, go away..." Huo Qi nodded deeply and got up straight. Just when yanmiao thought he wanted to understand that he was going to go away, when he got on the bus, he also rushed into the car and said with a smile, "I''ll go into your car and go to dinner with you!" "...." Yan Miao sneered at his incompetence. "Huo Qishen, you really keep refreshing the thickness of your face." Huo Qishen put his arms on the seat and supported his face with a fist in his hand. He looked at yanmiao''s unbearable appearance and said with a smile: "I can''t help it... Tell me about you. You''ve been so cold to me recently, which has hurt me. Come to the hospital. The medical staff from top to bottom are cold to me." He sighed, "I''m a patient. When I''m sick, I hope to be comforted... But I have to face the cold face. I can''t stand it!" "You don''t have to choose to see a doctor here!" Yanmiao said indifferently, fastened his seat belt and started the car. "The problem is that only here can I pay the bill, and the one in power of the Huo family will send someone to pay the bill..." Huo Qishen said here, obviously depressed, "do you think I want to?" Yanmiao glanced coldly at Huo Qishen, knowing that the goods could not go. He didn''t say anything more and took them to dinner. After Li Yunze received he Yining, he went to the agreed hot pot shop. Yan Miao feels that Li Yunze is becoming more and more grounded when he Yining lives with him "By the way," Huoqi asked, sipping his beer, "when are you going to have a wedding?" Li Yunze and he Yining looked at each other. Even yanmiao stopped chopsticks and looked curious. "Let''s have a holiday one by one!" Li Yunze said with a smile, "of course, she also said one by one that if we want to get married, she can ask for leave with the teacher for a few days." "It''s like I''m in a hurry to have a wedding with you!" Why do we make complaints about Tucao? "No," Li Yunze smiled, "I''m anxious to announce that everyone has succeeded in my pursuit of marriage..." Why Ning''s face turned red at once. Subconsciously, he looked at Yan Miao and Huo Qishen, who smiled vaguely. He stared at Li Yunze angrily, "you have thick skin, don''t pull me!" "Men? It''s better to be thick skinned." Li Yunze put the cooked fat cattle into the why Ning bowl, "there is meat to eat and soup to drink..." "..." he Yining''s face reddened a little. Looking at the fat cow in front of him, he suddenly thought of the meat words he said when he was with Li Yunze last night, and immediately wanted to find a ground to drill in. Everyone is an adult. At first glance, he Yining looks like this. No matter yanmiao or Huo Qishen, they all think of something they don''t have. Just Yan Miao''s face is also red! "I don''t think the air conditioner in this room is on enough." Li Yunze suddenly said, "or is it easy to blush after eating hot pot?" He Yining immediately stared at Li Yunze, and yanmiao''s face... Became more red. "Cough!" Huo Qishen coughed lightly, as if to interrupt the embarrassment of the atmosphere, and hurriedly called the waiter to come and add soup. Li Yunze smiled and didn''t say much. He just glanced at he Yining, who was completely out of state, and sighed. After dinner, we broke up in pairs. As soon as he got on the bus, he Ning hurriedly asked, "Li Yunze, do you think there is an affair between yanmiao and Huo Qishen?" Li Yunze looked at why Ning smiled. He looked through the windshield and just came to the car. Yan Miao and Huo Qishen, who didn''t know what was "noisy", deepened their smile. "Even if there is no adultery, I''m afraid I''m on the way to adultery!" Li Yunze said firmly. Women are born with gossip, especially the gossip of people around them, which is even more curious. He Yining said immediately, "you mean they''ll go to bed later?" "..." Li Yunze looked at why Ning with excited eyes. He could hardly wait to follow him now to see if yanmiao and Huo Qishen would go to bed. "I don''t know if they will go to bed later..." Li Yunze suddenly smiled vaguely, leaned over to he Yining and said slowly, "I know... Later, we will go to bed!" "..." he Yining pushed Li Yunze away. His face became red and dry. At the same time, he didn''t know what he was muttering? Li Yunze smiled very happily. When he Yining was a child, he ran behind his ass all day without shame and impatience. Now forget he Yining''s love for him in the past. He can make you blush in a few words... It can also be regarded as two different experiences of life. Li Yunze started the car, "Yining..." "Huh?" Why should I answer the voice rather stuffy. Li Yunze glanced at he Yining and asked with a smile, "when shall we have the wedding?" After a pause, "the Dragon boss and the warm wedding are said to be in autumn. Why don''t we do it ahead of them!" He Yining smiled uncontrollably. She didn''t know why. When she heard Li Yunze say she was going to have a wedding, she couldn''t help being happy subconsciously. "You said, one by one came to this world when we didn''t tell the world. If two, two, three, three..." Li Yunze looked down at his stomach. "Isn''t there a little regret when we come down under such circumstances?" "Oh, my God!" He Yining suddenly exclaimed, as if he thought of something because of Li Yunze''s words? Li Yunze was so frightened that he subconsciously stopped the car and hurriedly asked, "what''s the matter?" Chapter 1693 Why Ning stared at Li Yunze, and the corners of his mouth kept moving back and forth, as if surprised or confused... In short, many emotions were entangled together in an instant. Li Yunze looked at why Yining was like this, and immediately his joking mood was gone. He hurriedly asked, "Yining, what''s the matter? Is it uncomfortable?" With that, he wanted to feel the pulse for he Yining. Yan Miao was just about to turn on the road when he saw Li Yunze''s car blocked at the departure place, and frowned slightly, "what''s the matter?" "Who knows?" Huo Qi''s deep mouth crossed the evil spirit''s bad smile, "I can''t help it if I can''t point to dry firewood and fire." Yanmiao looked at him contemptuously and sounded the horn. However, Li Yunze''s car in front didn''t move. "Do you want to go down and have a look?" Yan Miao murmured. Huo Qishen glanced sideways at her, "wait a minute, no, call and ask." Yanmiao looked at him again, and his eyes were more disgusted She didn''t call, but just waited. Fortunately, they were the only two cars out at the moment. Li Yunze''s car was filled with nervous but complicated air. What Li Yunze had make complaints about when he was just trying to detect the pulse was: "when did you change from a primary school to a western medicine? When did you change your pulse?" Li Yunze frowned, "I still understand the superficial pulse, okay?" Seeing why he was so calm, he asked, "what happened just now?" Then came the sound of honking. Li Yunze looked back at yanmiao''s car, took back his sight and started out of the parking lot. At the same time, he looked at he Yining, "what''s the matter?" He Yining hesitated. Finally, when Li Yunze''s car was about to turn to the road, he seemed not to be scared to death. He said reluctantly: "my aunt didn''t come this time..." she frowned, "won''t you win the bid so soon?!" Li Yunze put on the brake and stopped the car again. "Shit!" Huo Qishen directly burst out rude words in the back, "shit, what the hell is Li Yunze doing?" Yanmiao also felt strange. Just when he wanted to make a phone call, he saw Li Yunze''s car start and pull into the road... Then the speed quickly disappeared. "No, it''s really urgent. I can''t. run home and do it?" Huo Qi joked deeply. Yan Miao frowned, "the problem is that they are not going back to the apartment or to Yining''s house." "Is that going back to the villa?" "It''s not......" yanmiao frowned suddenly. "That''s the direction to Huakang." With that, she hurriedly started the car and followed it, for fear of what was going on. Li Yunze took safety as the premise and went to Huakang hospital as soon as possible. He Yining looked at the cross that radiated a quiet and peaceful red light at night and frowned, "Li Yunze, you seem to have forgotten that I am an obstetrician and gynecologist myself." After a pause, she reluctantly looked at Li Yunze, "the urine test is very convenient now, and I can check it when I go to the hospital tomorrow!" "No, I''m in a hurry!" Li Yunze untied his seat belt, "besides, the doctor doesn''t treat himself..." "..." why did Ning take a puff at the corner of his mouth and want to tell Li Yunze who opened the door and got off the bus, just to see if he was pregnant? It''s not a serious disease and he doesn''t cure himself?! The co pilot''s door was opened, Li Yunze came in, untied the seat belt for he Yining, who was sitting still, and pulled her men out of the car. At the right time, yanmiao''s car also arrived and stopped quickly. She and Huo Qishen got off the car. "What''s the matter? What''s the matter?" Yan Miao asked anxiously, but he Yining looked worried. He Yining sighed helplessly, but he said warm in his heart: "Yan Yan, I have a doctor Li who can rank in the number all over the world. I don''t think you should worry." "Then why did you come to the hospital?" Yan Miao twisted her eyebrows. "Yining said her aunt didn''t come this time..." Li Yunze said with a shameless smile, and took he Yining to the direction of Obstetrics and gynecology. Yan Miao''s head was confused. Before he could react, he heard Huo Qi''s deep evil say: "tut Tut, it seems... The dry firewood and fire should be changed automatically to manual!" "..." Yan Miao looked sideways at Huo Qishen and felt that the man was speechless, "dirty!" After a word, I heard Huo Qishen''s howl... Yanmiao hit his instep with one foot. "Shit, yanmiao, where did I annoy you?" Huo Qi showed his teeth in deep pain and looked at yanmiao who left with Li Yunze. He wanted to strangle the woman, but he could only endure it. With advanced medical equipment and its own pharmaceutical factory, Huakang is the best hospital in China, both in terms of resources and itself. Although, just check if you are pregnant. "Congratulations, Dr. Li Shao and Dr. he..." the doctor on duty said with a smile after the examination. "Dr. he is really pregnant. I''m sure!" Li Yunze smiled. He Ning didn''t know what emotion he was. It seemed that he was happy and excited, and there was also a kind of expectation. Yan Miao sighed at he Yining and said with a smile, "I still remember when one by one was born... In a twinkling of an eye, one by one was so big, and you were pregnant again." He Yining all emotions are gradually replaced by happiness. From to obstetrics and Gynecology, she welcomed the arrival of her little life for other mothers every day... Now, she has to slowly welcome her little life. That feeling is a mixture of sweet and happy expectations. The night is soft and outrageous. In the midsummer night, no matter Li Yunze or he Yining, they can''t sleep with joy because of the sudden arrival of small life. Two people strolled on the path of the community and let the moonlight cover their figures "Yining..." "Huh?" Why is Ning''s hand held by Li Yunze sweating? However, she doesn''t feel uncomfortable at all, but feels very happy. Li Yunze stopped, his eyes burning in the night as if to disperse the night, "shall we have a wedding?" Why rather gently fanned his eyes and didn''t speak. Li Yunze raised his other hand, gently stroked he Yining''s hair, and said softly, "with the baby in his stomach, this wedding... Will be more blessing and joy, won''t it?" In fact, he Yining''s heart is not sweet, but he thinks he should be hypocritical. But why should we be hypocritical Well, she doesn''t understand it herself. Li Yunze took why Yining into her arms, felt her vague uneasiness at the moment, and whispered, "it has nothing to do with the past. I want to be with you because every day in the future, a woman named ''why Yining'' will accompany me... Live together, work together, and watch our children grow up..." After a slight pause, Li Yunze''s voice became low and enchanted and asked, "silly Ning, there are no interests and conditions. I just want to be with you forever... Will you?" Chapter 1694 He Yining''s nose was full of Li Yunze''s breath. Because she was tightly held by him, she could even feel her strong heartbeat. The corners of the mouth spread a smile. Bit by bit, it gradually melts into the fundus of the eye and applies a layer of soft breath "Li Yunze, you''ve been chasing so hard..." he Yining said with a smile, "with the blessing of 22, I''ll really marry you!" As soon as Li Yunze heard it, he Yining let go. He looked at her smiling face, and his eyes gradually deepened. He had already attached himself to her, and ruthlessly grabbed her lips. The moonlight is soft, and the love between lovers is full. He Yining thought, even if I don''t remember in the past, what can I do? What if there is a brother Yunhao between her and Li Yunze? She is very happy now. At least, in the six months after waking up, she was beside Li Yunze. Except for the exclusion at the beginning, she was very happy later There are not so many people who are worried. Besides, she and Li Yunze are licensed, have one, and now have two or two, together... Isn''t that what they deserve?! He Yining is pregnant again. This is a great happiness for the people around us. "Let me see, what can I do to make up for my body..." Li Jiyuan couldn''t close his mouth with a smile. Because he is used to independence now, he, as a grandfather, didn''t get along with his granddaughter for a few days, so he went abroad again. Now he Yining is pregnant again. Think about holding her grandson since he was born. Li Jiyuan is happy that when she was at school, she became gentle and kind... Instead, she made the students more frightened one by one. "This wedding is planned by Chen Yu and I!" Li Jinxi picked an eyebrow and said, "the time is set in two months. The dangerous period has passed, and the preparation is not so nervous." Li Yunze has no opinion. He Yining is happy for everyone. "Yining, now my Yan Yan has company." Jane Mo said with a smile, "think about being a companion with Xiaojie one by one. Now you have another one in your stomach who is a companion with Yan Yan... This fate is no one." "Hey, I can explain in advance!" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows and said, "if I go to your house one by one, your Yan Yan will come to my house!" "OK, ok..." Jian Mo nodded immediately. "As long as my Yanyan and your call, it''s settled!" "Don''t get excited too early!" Gu Beichen turned the book with an indifferent face, glanced at Li Yunze with a grin, and then his eyes fell on the book again. "That makes him a son." ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Gu and Mo looked at the cold water one after another. "I don''t like what Beichen said!" Why would you rather curl your mouth, slightly pick your chin and say, "my baby is my son!" "My wife said, this baby is a son!" Li Yunze also raised his eyebrows. He Yining was very happy that he would automatically be on the same line with him when he encountered his problems. Gu Beichen''s thin lips flashed a slight smile and didn''t speak. I don''t know if I don''t want to argue with women, or if I just thought it was a joke and hurt my brother''s happiness. He Yining looked after Beichen''s attitude, "angry" and "Li Yunze!" "Wife, here!" Li Yunze looks like a dog leg. "It''s like he will have a son, but we won''t!" Why do you rather pick your eyebrows? "Let''s test men and women..." she snorted, "it''s good to see that President Gu was beaten in the face." "I''m afraid you''ll be beaten in the face!" Gu Beichen looked at he Yining, and the corners of his mouth were obviously smiling. Jane Mo took a puff from the corner of her mouth. "Now the situation is... Has everyone''s'' War ''become more than the ability to have children?!" As soon as her words fell, everyone laughed. "Uncle Ye..." seeing that he Yining was pregnant again, Chen pulled off Ye Chenyu''s sleeve. "Shall we have a child, too? Otherwise, we can''t keep up with everyone''s rhythm!" "Why, don''t you want to go to the world of two?" Ye Chenyu hugged his wife and said, "it''s better to be born later. It''s the pet of everyone!" "I''m afraid you''re too old to come back!" Chen Yu skimmed his mouth. Ye Chenyu immediately stared, "little girl... Are you cursing your husband?!" When he finished, he saw Chen Chen''s flattering appearance, gritting his teeth and pointing his fingers, with a helpless look on his face, "OK, we''ll make a villain and a dragon and Phoenix fetus in the evening, and we''ll catch up at once!" A group of adults were playing childish jokes there. The little princess in Jane Mo''s arms seemed to feel beautiful, and her little mouth grinned... It was even more funny, and the air became warm and sweet. Jian Mo looked at Li Yunze, who was "angry" by Ye Chenyu and Mo Shaochen, and then looked at Gu Beichen, who provoked "dispute" but withdrew from the war circle with a indifferent face. Suddenly, he felt that such happiness made people feel that life was being pulled up in a fast pace I really hope that everything can slow down so that they can enjoy such a good time. "Seriously, I envy you." Li Xiaoyue sighed with relief, "Alas, I don''t know if Shaochen and I will have children in the future?" "You have experienced all the bad things before, so there will always be luck in the next life." Jane Mo smiled and said, "look, big brother and warmth, don''t you have an Yixun now?!" Li Xiaoyue also smiled and nodded, "indeed... Fate is wonderful!" "OK, bet!" Over there, the men suddenly didn''t know what to shout, so they listened to Li Yunze''s bold look and said, "if Yining has a son in his stomach, you uncles, you need to promise my son anything in the future!" "Good!" Everyone clapped. Jian Mo and Li Xiaoyue looked at each other and laughed one after another. "I really don''t know the significance of such gambling?" Li Jinxi said with a smile, "is it possible that Yunze''s son will find these uncles in the future, and they are still willing to refuse?" Naturally, everyone knows, but just because Yining is pregnant, everyone is happy and has some fun. Just say test. Blood tests for men and women can be difficult for other doctors, but not Li Yunze. All the troops immediately went to Huakang hospital, Li Yunze took the blood for he Yining himself and didn''t forget to express his sincerity to her: "Yining, I don''t care about men and women. As long as it''s the child you gave me, I like it." "Don''t be a big burden. It''s a big deal. We''ll play tricks later!" He Yining smiled and said, "besides, I put forward the test, and you comforted me in turn." Li Yunze and he Yining looked at each other, and a happy smile filled the corners of their mouths. Life and days, because of their past habits and the subtle influence of each other... They have long been integrated into one. Li Yunze went to the laboratory. They were chatting and waiting for the results in the hospital leisure hall. In the end, the topic revolves around whose children belong to "It will feel as good as our children in the future." Jane Mo said with a smile. The crowd echoed. The feelings of parents continue in the next generation, which is naturally the best. Time passed quickly in our chat... When Li Yunze came with the test results, they suddenly found that they were a little nervous about the results. "Yunze," Li Jinxi first asked, "boys and girls?" Chapter 1695 "Look at the treacherous look on his smiling face..." Chen Yu sighed softly. "It seems that he has got what he wants." Gu Beichen''s eyes gradually deepened, "I''m afraid the result will be somewhat different." "Huh?" Jian Mo immediately looked at Gu Beichen and waited for a solution. Unfortunately, Gu Beichen didn''t speak, but slightly picked his eyebrows and told Jian Mo to let Li Yunze say it himself. "Li Yunze, what is the result?" Why Ning zhe asked with a smile. She was still a little looking forward to the result. The first is a daughter. The second naturally wants a boy. It has nothing to do with son preference. It feels that forming a "good" word is what many parents expect. Li Yunze hugged he Yining in his arms. He first ignored everyone''s kiss, then raised the test results in his hand, looked at everyone with eyebrows, and said proudly: "there are men and women..." "..." the crowd was stunned and silent at first. "Yining has two fetuses," Li Yunze said with greater pride. "Dragon and Phoenix fetuses!" "Shit!" Ye Chenyu exploded first. "Shit, I haven''t got the dragon and Phoenix fetus yet. You have it first!" "Uncle Ye, I''m jealous!" In front of Ye Chenyu, Chen is not the overlord of the police force, but a soft waxy sister paper. "Little girl, I''m jealous!" Ye Chenyu said, glancing at why Ning''s stomach. He envied his face. He could not wait for the dragon and Phoenix fetus in his stomach to be in the belly of his girl. He Yining was very happy. She didn''t expect that two two and three three would come together this time "Really?" He Yining swallowed involuntarily and asked. Li Yunze smiled and nodded, hugged he Yining and said proudly to everyone: "family genes, don''t be too envious and jealous!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Everyone was silent and gave Li Yunze a look for beating. However, the joke is a joke. Why is Ning pregnant with a dragon and Phoenix fetus? Everyone is very happy for her. "Brother, why are you going?" Chen Xiaoyu asked with a smile. "Of course, go back and make dragon and Phoenix twins!" Ye Chenyu said without shame. Chen Yu immediately kicked over. Unfortunately, ye Chenyu avoided him. Compared with Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue, they move the regulations as soon as they quarrel. Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu start fighting when they disagree Of course, Chen Yu can''t beat Uncle Ye. Uncle Ye let her. Who''s your wife?! "Listen to his nonsense!" Chen Yu smiled and said, "I''ll be on duty later. He sent me there." "All right, don''t explain. If you explain too much, it will become a cover up." Mo Shaochen said with a smile. When his eyes crossed Ye Chenyu, it was obvious that there was teasing at the bottom of his eyes. Ye Chenyu has a thick skin. Anyway, it doesn''t matter. He dragged Chen Yu, waved with everyone and left. On the bus to the police station, Chen Yu looked at Uncle Ye with an evil face and said with a smile, "how much pressure?" "What pressure?" Ye Chenyu asked deliberately. Chen Yu raised his eyebrow. "Yunze has the gene of dragon and Phoenix fetus in his family, and you don''t... you have to rely on luck to have twins. Do you want dragon and Phoenix fetus?" She deliberately shook her head and sighed, "Uncle Ye, I can foresee your future and will be laughed at by President Gu." "Laugh!" Ye Chenyu picked up his eyebrows and looked at Chen Yu. You said, "anyway, if you come out to mix, you''ll have to pay it back sooner or later." "Huh?" Chen Yu didn''t understand. Ye Chenyu smiled, but did not continue the topic. "Uncle Ye, I want children." Chen Yu said softly when he was about to arrive at the police station. Ye Chenyu smiled, "you want it, you want it!" He glanced at Chen Yu. "But you have to think about it..." he seemed to be joking, but he said very seriously, "if you want, you have to put down the matter of the criminal police team." Because of his childhood experience, Chen Yu can now be said to be jealous of evil as hatred. If he is pregnant and runs out of work, shit... He has to worry about the girl''s stomach while worrying about the girl. Chen Yu crossed the tangle at the bottom of his eyes, "let me think again..." In fact, she also knows that Uncle Ye doesn''t want children now. On the one hand, she thinks she is still young. On the other hand, she also knows that she has great enthusiasm for the work of the police force. There are trade-offs in everything. Uncle Ye gave up the special police team and opened a private detective agency because of her enthusiasm. Should she also put aside the criminal police team temporarily, sir, a child?! "Don''t think too much," Ye Chenyu stopped at the door of the police station, looked at Chen Chen''s silent appearance, pinched her face and said with an evil smile. "There are few times in life that you can live wantonly... So, little girl, enjoy it when you can wantonly. Don''t let some of your thoughts imprison you. That''s not the sister Chen I like!" Chen Yu looked at Ye Chenyu and his nose was a little sour. I''m afraid the luckiest thing in her life is to meet her Uncle Ye. ¡­¡­ At night, because of the arrival of the dragon and Phoenix fetus, for Li Yunze and he Yining, the beautiful air seemed to turn pink. Li Yunze couldn''t help laughing when he Yining turned out a pile of prenatal education books. "You said yourself that you are a gynecologist and still turn the books here." "I''m not a doctor at the moment..." he Yining turned the page and said, "I''m a mother now, okay?!" Li Yunze handed the poured water to he Yining, sat down beside her, took her in his arms and said, "are you so nervous when you are pregnant one by one?" He Yining raised his eyes, drank water, thought for a moment and said, "well, I''m very nervous..." she looked sideways at Li Yunze and said, "because I was alone at that time, and I didn''t have so much contact with this in obstetrics and gynecology as I do now." "I won''t let you alone in the future." Li Yunze tightened he Yining''s arm and felt guilty in the depths of his eyes. Now Yining, because he can''t remember his love for him for 20 years, he can easily say the beginning. However, from the lines of Yining''s love letter, he could feel the happiness and bitterness of her being so lonely, loving and waiting for her to grow up one by one. Yining, never again! "Fortunately, it''s not so..." He Yining wanted to say something to comfort Li Yunze who was not accompanied one by one, but halfway through the words, inexplicably, there was a trace of sadness in her heart that she couldn''t understand. "Anyway, I''ll be by your side in the future." Li Yunze let go of he Yining, raised his hand and scraped her nose. He didn''t want her to fall into subconscious memory. In the past, Yining worked too hard. Now let her enjoy it easily. "Li Yunze..." "Huh?" "I had an idea at that time," why should I rather raise my eyes to Li Yunze''s line of sight, "I don''t know whether it''s good or not?" "What do you think?" Li Yunze asked. Chapter 1696 He Yining didn''t answer immediately, but put his hand gently on the lower abdomen, lowered his eyes and bit his lower lip, as if it was tangled. Li Yunze frowned slightly, looked at he Yining, and saw that she seemed to hesitate, didn''t urge, but waited quietly. After a while, why Ning looked up at Li Yunze and said slowly without too much emotional fluctuation: "I''m thinking that we have the ability to have children, and this baby is two..." "Well, then?" Li Yunze seemed to feel something. After he Yining breathed a sigh of relief, he said, "whether it''s a boy or a girl who comes out first, let''s pass it on to Jinxi and Chen Yu?" Li Yunze''s eyes twinkled with complex emotions. Looking at he Yining, he was distressed by the little woman. No mother doesn''t want her child to be around her. It''s conceivable that she must be tangled with this decision. "It''s passed on to them. It''s also a family. It won''t be far away." Why Ning zhe said at the corner of his mouth, "in this way, they won''t have regrets." Li Yunze hugged he Yining in his arms. Whether it was Yining in the past or her now, she has always been... She is kind. However, such a kind little woman, he used the most vicious words to hurt her. Li Yunze, you really should be thankful. No matter how time goes by or how difficult it is to do, silly Ning is always his... Never changed. "Jin Xi will be very grateful to you." Li Yunze''s voice trembled. He Yining shook his head gently in his arms. "I don''t want them to be grateful. I just feel that no matter how they are still a family, they still keep themselves around most of the time. In fact, it''s not bad... Moreover, they can also have a sustenance. Jinxi''s regret may not be a pity." At that time, everyone was immersed in the joy of having a dragon and Phoenix fetus. She could clearly feel Jinxi''s desire for children, but she had infinite regrets because she couldn''t have children. They are a family. Even if the children are adopted to them, they are still a family However, for Jinxi, the meaning is different. Li Jinxi''s eyes turned red when she heard why she would rather pass on the child who came out first to her. Proud as she is, even though the wound is slowly healing, it is the scar of her pride in her life because she can''t have children "Yining, thank you!" Li Jinxi held he Yining, and tears fell uncontrollably in an instant. He Yining patted Li Jinxi on the back and said with a smile in his mouth: "we are all a family, aren''t we?!" "Hmm..." Li Jinxi cried, but the corners of his mouth were full of gratitude and expectation. Chen Yu looked at Li Jinxi with both heartache and guilt... But in the end, they turned into comfort. Those who have love can get love in the end, can''t they?! Time passes day by day. Los Angeles four young girls, except for one Lin Nanan who is still single, the other three have their own children A relationship begins with love. In the process of helping each other, it is spent with the growth of children When you sigh that the years are quiet and good, maybe people recall their life in the evening. At that time, you will find that no matter good or bad, they need to go every step of life. No one can have a smooth life, and no one has a rough life. As long as you have love in your heart, good in your mind, luck and beauty, you will always get your share in your life! "Congratulations, Dr. he!" "Dr. he, when will the wedding be ready?" "Yes, I''m pregnant again. Is the wedding before or after birth?" "After giving birth, I have to nurse the baby again. Must it be before giving birth?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± In Shuya hospital, I heard that he Yining was pregnant. One by one, it seemed that he Yining was related to himself. "I''m going to do it at the end of August..." he Yining said with a smile. "When you have time, come to the wedding." "Good!" "Necessary..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± When they heard this, they were extremely excited. At the moment, I don''t care about the money. I think it doesn''t matter if I can attend a wedding in the upper class. Even the gift money is regarded as the tuition. Song Tianye looks at the smile on he Yining''s face and breathes a sigh of relief. Yining forgot his love for Li Yunze. He knew it. Whether it''s because of his reluctance to give up Li Yunze or falling in love with that excellent man again... He''s happy for her. After all, after so many years of persistence, it''s still a good result. It''s worth the people around you to be happy for her. "Doctor he..." Ma Guangming shouted with a smile on his face. The crowd gathered around he Yining''s medical staff. As soon as the Dean came, they hurried to disperse like birds and animals. "Dean!" Why would you rather say hello than be humble. "Pregnancy is a good thing. You are in obstetrics and Gynecology, and fetal examination is also convenient." Ma Guangming said vaguely. Some people have begun to secretly despise Ma Guangming. After all, the implication of his words is that why do you prefer fetal examination? Just be your own home. Listening to Ma Guangming''s overtly and covertly "flattering" he Yining, someone rolled his eyes secretly and whispered to the people around him, "doctor he''s the heir of Huakang. Does doctor he need to take advantage of you?!" "Just..." The muttering voice did not affect ma Guangming to talk loudly in front of he Yining. After talking for a while, he also told Chu Qin not to arrange shifts for he Yining. Just take a long day shift. "I know." Chu Qin answered with a smile. In fact, when someone in Corey is pregnant, Chu Qin usually doesn''t work shifts. After all, it''s not good for the child and the mother. Corey is mostly a woman, and everyone will help. Ma Guangming made a special explanation at the moment. It was completely intentional. He Yining also knew it, but he couldn''t hate Ma Guangming''s behavior. After all, there is no hospital in the country that doesn''t want the share of Huakang pharmaceutical. Everyone was talking, why Ning''s mobile phone rang. She took it out and it was Li Yunze who called: "what''s the matter?" "Chen Yu has arranged for a photographer to take wedding photos," Li Yunze said, writing a medical record and focusing on two purposes. "Ask your time." "The weekend should be OK." He Yining said. "Then I''ll answer." "Well, good!" Li Yunze''s eyes were deep. Without saying anything, he hung up the phone and immediately dialed Chen Yu "What day?" "Weekend." Li Yunze spoke. Chen Xuan raised his eyebrows. "Do you have any requirements?" "I trust your photography team." Li Yunze put down his pen and leaned back slowly on the chair. "Anyway, I want to have a theme, I can!" Chapter 1697 Chen Yu lowered his eyes and smiled, "Yunze, are you really going to do this?" "Don''t you think it''s good?" Li Yunze laughed, got up, took a glass of water for himself and said, "you have me, I have you... Who does it matter? As long as it''s us!" Chen Yu is very impressed by Li Yunze''s words. People can find the one around them in their life. In fact, many things are willing to do for each other. It''s like Jinxi put down the past and is willing to accept him again It seems that Yining knows Jinxi''s regret and Yunze, as a compatriot, wants to do something for Jinxi, so he takes the initiative to pass on the one who came out first. "I''ll arrange it." Chen Yu said faintly, "talk back." "Yes." Chen hung up the phone and then pressed the inside line to the Secretary, "inform Qin Sang''s team and have a meeting in half an hour." "OK, Mr. Chen." After hearing the Secretary''s response, Chen hung up. Twenty five minutes later. Qin Sang''s team was already waiting in the office. As soon as Chen came in and gave him a business plan in his hand, the person sat down in the first place, "when the weekend is free, your team will be responsible for the film." Qin sang opened it and saw that it was a series of wedding dress theme photos. He frowned slightly, "President Chen, do I need a wedding dress photo?" There was a clear dissatisfaction in his voice. Qin sang is the largest photography team of China entertainment. All his subordinates are shooting top stars. When domestic stars appear on the magazine cover, the most hope is that Qin sang can operate the knife himself... Because he can give you the most satisfactory effect with the same posture. "It''s family business." Chen Yu opens his mouth. "Family to the conference room?" Qin Sang''s fingers beat the project one after another. It looked a little annoying, but it belonged to the pride of the capable. Li Yunze and why would rather have a wedding? This is what the emperor''s media burst out. Although Qin sang felt that Li Yunze''s family background and Gu Beichen''s relationship did not necessarily need to use him... Since he used it, he always had to seek some benefits for himself. Otherwise, he will always be held by Chen because of his kindness. There is no room for resistance. It''s too low! Chen Xuan raised his eyebrow. "Don''t you want to choose the shooting characters and process by yourself?" He said slowly, "I''ll give you a year... If you can maintain your ability without my interference with you, I can not interfere with you in the future!" "Really?" Qin sang didn''t expect Chen Xiang to be so talkative. Chen Yu flashed a faint smile at the corner of his mouth, and his eyes gradually deepened. He said, "I won''t interfere with whether it''s good or bad..." paused, "but you need to sign a long contract with me!" "Fuck!" Qin sang began to scold, "Chen Yu, can''t you go up without touching the pole? What''s the difference between me and signing the deed of sale? Aren''t you kidnapping me with human feelings all day?" Chen Yu looked at Qin sang as if you could choose by yourself. Qin sang is very affectionate. Sometimes it''s a double-edged sword, both good and bad. Chen Yu tied him to China entertainment. On the one hand, he took a fancy to his talent, on the other hand... It''s also the most important. Here, he can give Qin sang the maximum self willed. Qin sang naturally knew this, so Chen Yu used the contract to eliminate his future human dilemma. weekend. There are some white clouds floating in the sky, soft as cotton candy. He Yining looked at his first suit and frowned slightly. A white shirt, a plaid suspender skirt on the knee, a pair of black shoes with a baby head, a pair of white socks with a hissing edge "Is this a wedding photo?" He Yining looked at yanmiao who accompanied him. "How do I feel that this is the match I would wear when I was a child?" Yan Miao smiled. "Didn''t you say it was a theme wedding photo? Just wear it... Anyway, you said you had no opinion and let Li Yunze arrange it by yourself." Why rather shrug, a face can only accept out of the dressing room. The first scene is arranged next to the swimming pool of the villa Li Yunze is over there and he Yining is here... At Qin Sang''s request, Li Yunze copied his pocket with one hand and a cup of "bubble wine" with the other hand. He Yining was asked to look at him shyly. With the blessing of professional team and angle sensitive Qin sang, the first picture was taken smoothly. "When a lady goes there, she must be shy and eager to know the man..." Qin sang is guiding, "yes, her expression is very good. You don''t have to take pictures here. As long as you think about it, when you first meet a man, you will feel happy..." Before he had finished speaking, he heard Li Yunze "pop" and fell into the swimming pool by he Yining. "Good, good..." Qin sang murmured, his hands moving constantly, not only capturing the excitement of he Yining, but also the nervous, worried and scared look of he Yining when Li Yunze fell into the swimming pool. "Li Yunze, I......" why Ning quickly stretched out his hand and wanted to catch Li Yunze''s hand. Li Yunze smiled and handed his hand to he Yining. The sunlight sprinkled on them, which actually outlined a kind of innocence. At the beginning of that year, he Yining was bewitched by Li Yunze''s love all his life across a swimming pool. Only he can solve it. Every time, she wanted to appear in front of him with the best image, but gradually found that... Every time her idea ended in a mess. Li Yunze, who once fell into the swimming pool by he Yining, gave her a cold face in front of the public. Today, he was "knocked" out of the pool by her again, but smiled and handed her his hand Yining, wedding photos... Start with you love me! Every frame will record our past. Under Qin Sang''s guidance and Li Yunze''s intention, he Yining felt those familiar scenes that he couldn''t remember. Once, Li Yunze sat on the tree and peered at he Yining under the tree. Now... Li Yunze and he Yining are sitting on the branch of a tree, laughing at each other and quietly enjoying the unique cicadas in summer. Once, Li Yunze stood on the second floor, looked at why Ning kept waving to him downstairs and closed the window. Now... Why is Ning still waving to him downstairs, and he smiled and compared his heart to her. Once, he Yining "cooked" for Li Yunze and expected him to boast. Now... Why does Li Yunze cook with Ning? I hope she can be happy. Once, why would you rather kiss Li Yunze shyly and secretly when he was sleeping, and be happy for a long time. Now... Li Yunze holds he Yining and kisses affectionately in the sunset. Once, why would you rather "pick" Li Yunze''s pants Chapter 1698 "I''m looking forward to the next scene." Yanmiao couldn''t help laughing when Qin sang said what to shoot. In the past, when I was in school, I heard Yining say that she accidentally picked Li Yunze''s pants in public. At that time, everyone also said that Li Yunze didn''t accept her, mainly because she was a nightmare of Li Yunze''s life. Let''s ask, if a boy who is the pride of heaven and a genius can still like her after being "corrected" by a girl, it must be that the boy is a masochist. ''click'' came, Yan Miao''s smile stiffened, looked at Qin sang and twisted his eyebrows, "Why are you patting me?" "I think you just had a good expression, so I can''t help your professional inertia..." Qin sang said casually. "Brother Qin, when did you have inertia in your camera and can''t help it?" The light in the team joked. Qin sang didn''t have any awareness of being punctured at all, and naturally said, "just now!" "...." yanmiao took a breath from the corner of his mouth. Just when he wanted to say something, Qin sang interrupted his thoughts. "In other words, now let Li Yunze take off his pants... What effect will it have?" Compared with being secretly photographed, yanmiao is more interested in this topic, "Li Yunze is really hard enough for this set of wedding photos!" Then she looked at Qin sang, "what are you going to do?" Qin sang picked his eyebrows and smiled. In the sunset, the man who seemed a little slovenly but showed artistic male charm gave people a kind of arrogant easygoing. "Wait a minute, you''ll know..." Qin sang said. He saw Li Yunze and he Yining over there ready. The photography assistant was talking to them. "So... Okay?" Why would you rather wring your eyebrows. "Very loving!" Seeing he Yining looking at his skirt, the photography assistant smiled and said, "anyway, just follow what I said and imagine how you would react if that happened..." he paused. "You must remember that you are now close lovers in love!" "Yes." He Yining nodded. I haven''t found it before. From the beginning of shooting, he Yining found himself very talented in acting. "Well, ready to start..." Qin sang shouted, "according to what the assistant just said, you can figure it out by yourself, and I''ll capture it." "OK." He Yining just answered. Suddenly, she felt as if her skirt was going to be lifted up. She suddenly looked at Li Yunze who was going to do bad things. When she pressed him down, she looked at his treacherous smile and twisted his ear with anger, "Li Yunze, do you want to do it?" Li Yunze didn''t speak, just smiled and looked at he Yining Qin sang caught him in a moment and was afraid to go back and forth. He said to Yan Miao: "I was very angry when I heard that Li Yunze was stripped of his pants by Yining..." he smiled at the corner of his mouth, "You see, it''s still in love now. When there are outsiders, why would li Yunze be ashamed to do the same thing? Besides, Li Yunze was still such an excellent person when he didn''t love at the beginning!" "We also feel that Li Yunze''s previous treatment of Yining was entirely caused by psychological shadow." Yanmiao''s eyes fell on the two people who didn''t know what they were talking about. Why did Ning Qi want to beat people, but Li Yunze hugged them in his arms, and the corners of his mouth also smiled, "in fact, if there were no those things, maybe they would have been together long ago..." The theme of today''s photo is not difficult to see that Yining really did a lot of things that made Li Yunze collapse when he was a child. However, everything fell into Li Yunze''s heart, didn''t it?! "That''s all for today''s shooting," Qin sang continued after giving the camera in his hand to the assistant. "Continue tomorrow." "Thank you, hard work." He Yining said with a smile, "I''m very happy to shoot today... Although there are some small accidents." The people looked at each other and laughed. He Yining thought everyone was laughing at a little accident and didn''t think much... But he didn''t react at all. Today''s events have happened. However, the former indifference has become the guardian of today''s tenderness. The next day, the clouds of the previous day were dispersed and the sky was clear. It''s very hot in summer. Fortunately, today''s location is only part of Luoda On the tree lined Road on the campus of Luoyang University, Li Yunze in a suit and shoes pulled his long hair with slight curls, which was just decorated with simple flowers. He Yining, who was wearing a bra wedding dress, either walked or ran with a skirt In the mottled sunlight penetrating the leaves, they laughed wantonly... Completely captured by Qin Sang''s lens. Yanmiao leaned against the tree and occasionally took a picture of Fang Zihan who was "fighting" on the front line. The smile on the corners of his mouth also filled the air. Qin sang occasionally takes two photos of yanmiao when he is free. Sometimes he will be found and sometimes he can''t. At first, yanmiao protested, but later he was powerless "The last theme," Qin sang said with an ambiguous smile after changing the memory card, "the temptation of uniform!" He Yining and Li Yunze looked at each other and understood that the last theme was closely related to their work. Under the statue of Hippocrates in Los Angeles, the corridor of the hospital, the place with the Red Cross, the operating room Or flirt, or ambiguous, or "work", or "accident" under the kiss, every scene, every photo, as if to narrow down the documentary of Li Yunze and why Ning''s life. In this way, Li Yunze wrote his love for he Yining and his return for her love. "I have a party in the evening. Would you like to come with me?" Qin sang asked yanmiao and looked at he Yining and Li Yunze who were going to change clothes. "Later, they will definitely offer to eat... But think about it. Although our two-day shooting is very easy, he Yining is pregnant in the end, and it''s not appropriate for everyone to delay... Are you right?!" Yan Miao smiled and was amused by Qin Sang''s words. "In other words, I know what you said, and I don''t intend to work with them..." paused. "The problem is, what does it have to do with you going to the party? Don''t I go home to have a rest? I have to go to work tomorrow!" "No, we''ve been getting along well for two days... It''s good to play together and get to know more friends!" Qin sang said with a smile, "besides, your best friend is the mother of your child. You don''t have a boyfriend yet because of the small circle!" "Who said I didn''t have a boyfriend?" Yanmiao seemed to be stimulated and refuted without thinking. "You have?" Qin sang said, smiling with disbelief on his face. "In two days, except for sending photos of he Yining and Li Yunze to female friends, I haven''t seen you contact a man or a man contact you... Are you sure your boyfriend doesn''t exist in your imagination Chapter 1699 As soon as Yan Miao heard it, he said quietly, "how do you know I send it to female friends?" She said, gnashing her teeth. "Do you have perspective eyes or peep into my cell phone, huh?" Qin sang smiled with a natural smile and a feeling of being beaten. "Actually, I just said it casually..." Qin sang looked at Yan Miao''s angry instant and said with a smile, "but now I''m sure." "...." yanmiao pulled at the corner of his mouth. Qin sang said with his arms around his chest, "tell me about you, you have entered the ranks of leftover women, and you work all day at home, two points and one line..." he said as if he were yanmiao''s mother, "you, frankly, there is a lack of circle! A single circle." "Yan Miao rolled his eyes. "Why do you prefer your own circle? The contact is basically women, either medical staff or women who want to have children..." Qin sang continued to preach, "and Li Yunze''s circle is basically married. You can''t contact it and sell yourself... So, you really need to attend my party tonight, because more than 80% of them are single!" "Ha ha!" Yan Miao laughed and turned to leave. He didn''t bother to talk to Qin sang. "Yan Miao, I''m serious..." Qin sang followed him. "Anyway, it''s no harm to be a friend. Are you right?" "Seriously, I doubt your motives if you think so ''for me''." Yan Miao said. Qin sang raised his eyebrows. "What''s the motive?" "Who..." "Someone has been at this party for three years, single again." Suddenly, a voice came with a smile. Qin sang and yanmiao looked sideways and saw Chen Yu coming with Li Jinxi. "This year, someone bet that this party will bring a woman!" Chen Yu said slowly in a playful voice, "if you don''t bring it, he will contract the wine money for the annual party alone." "..." Qin Sang''s mouth was wide open. Chen Yu stood beside them and continued, "of course, there''s no problem with one year''s wine money, but there''s a big problem in face..." he smiled and looked across Qin sang and fell on yanmiao. "If you want to make do with any trouble, you have to find someone who is pleasing to the eye... Well, it''s estimated that he is suspicious of you!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Now Qin sang and Yan Miao are speechless. "But you can go and have a look." Li Jinxi picked an eyebrow around Chen Yu''s arm and said, "after all, there are really a lot of singles at that party. Many of them take women to the party. They just play on the spot. It''s uncertain that they really see the right eye." She smiled and looked at Qin sang. "Moreover, even if Qin sang had a chance in the end, it would be good. They are all people around and know their roots." "Why do I think it has suddenly become a blind date promotion meeting?" Yan Miao smiled helplessly. Li Jinxi raised her eyebrows and said with a smile, "everyone around you is happy. If you are single, naturally everyone will worry... Anyway, it''s not forcing you to do anything. Just relax." "A little wine is allowed, not too much." Li Yunze came over with he Yining, who changed his clothes. "Tomorrow I''ll ask Corey not to arrange surgery for you." Yanmiao feels that he has been driven to the shelf. However, she feels that she really needs to expand her circle. She can''t hang a heartless person?! Finally, under the people''s deception, yanmiao promised Qin sang to attend his party. "Is that all right?" Seeing yanmiao stuffed into the car by Qin sang, he Yining was a little worried, "I think Yanyan and Huo Qishen can still continue." Li Yunze smiled, "that party is Huo Qishen." "Ah?!" He Yining looked at Li Yunze in amazement, "how do you know?" "There are so many fixed gatherings in the circle. Someone around me mentioned it before. It happened to mention the Huo family." Li Yunze took he Yining''s hand and walked to the position of the car with Chen Yu and Li Jinxi. "It''s uncertain whether yanmiao and he have a play tonight." "The excitement of your rival?" He Yining asked with a smile, "what if Qin sang really likes my family?" "Then we should all rely on our abilities and go with yanmiao''s last heart." Li Jinxi said with a smile. The four smiled, got on the bus and went to Li''s villa for dinner. ¡­¡­ At night, I gradually indulge in the lights and wine. "Night" entertainment city is a newly emerging Entertainment City in Los Angeles, which can be comparable to paradise night. Crazy consumption and diversified playing methods are everywhere full of a "chaotic" world. "Qin sang, so late?" "Yo, who''s the girl around you? Take it with you. It can''t be rented!" "Ha ha ha!" "You see what you said, as if my brother Qin really can''t have women..." Everyone laughed and joked, completely serious. "You all stop." Qin sang hugged yanmiao and said, "my woman is a serious person in a serious family. I scared away when I turned back. I changed my career to be a paparazzi. You cried for your father and mother!" "Shit, Qin sang, what do you say? We are all immoral people!" "Brother Qin, I''m serious with women''s clothes..." As soon as they heard this, they laughed one after another. While joking, they greeted yanmiao and introduced themselves. Yanmiao quietly wanted to break away from Qin sang. Unfortunately, the man seemed to have been on guard, "cuddle" so that she couldn''t break away. She greeted everyone with a smile, and her other hand had pinched Qin Sang''s waist. "Are you going to hurt me internally?" Qin sangdekong gritted his teeth and said. "Please keep smiling." Yan Miao smiled and whispered, "also, I''m a doctor. I''ll treat you for an internal injury!" "Artificial respiration?" Qin sang asked. Yanmiao glanced at Qin sang obliquely, still smiled and whispered, "I''ll find the woman opposite to give you artificial respiration... How about it?" Qin sang said coldly, "aren''t you disgusting me?!" Yan Miao raised his eyebrows and didn''t say anything?! After she came in for a while, she knew that Qin Sang was disgusted with the woman opposite, although she didn''t know the reason. "If you don''t let go, I''ll really hurt you!" Yan Miao said without opening his mouth. Qin sang not only didn''t let go, but also approached yanmiao slightly. He suddenly found that the woman was calm and a little unlovable. He really wants to know what she will look like when she is not calm?! Yan Miao already frowned when Qin sang leaned over, "don''t go too far, be careful I turn my face!" "Then you turned it over for me to see?" Qin sang picked his eyebrow and said with a smile. In that way, how ambiguous it should be in the eyes of outsiders. Yan Miao looked at Qin sang with a dead face and rolled his eyes secretly. He just wanted to push him away, but he didn''t know who did something wrong and pushed Qin sang Suddenly, Qin sang pressed yanmiao and fell on the sofa, and his lips fell on yanmiao''s face! Coax laughter came, but Yan Miao felt a dark swish with strange eyes. Subconsciously, I looked sideways and saw Huo Qishen standing there with a smile in his mouth Chapter 1700 Yanmiao frowned secretly, and someone in his ear said, "screwdriver, how can we get here? Everyone is here, just you... Three cups." "Good!" Huo Qishen''s voice is neither salty nor light. Looking at yanmiao''s line of sight, there is a deep smile at the corners of his mouth, which does not spread or disperse. Yanmiao looked at his joking appearance and was immediately angry. He didn''t know what he was thinking. He didn''t go to push Qin sang again. Huo Qishen sat down in the seat of others. He never left yanmiao from beginning to end. He always smiled cynically, but he wouldn''t make people feel annoying. Of course, this is not annoying. Yanmiao is not included in it. The field continued, and the game began to walk after everyone was together. In the single field, everyone plays in a variety of ways, and the atmosphere is very high. "I''ll drink Miaomiao''s wine!" Qin sang said with a smile when yanmiao lost, "I''m a woman. I have to bear it." "Hey, we don''t want to say that!" A woman quit and said, "we all drink by ourselves. You can drink for yanmiao. You can''t be in pairs!" "Double is double. Anyway, I can see it. You can''t see my double today!" Qin sang took two glasses of wine. "However, I can make it clear in advance. My woman will go to work tomorrow. Unlike you, unemployed vagrants... So ah, if you really want to catch me tonight, you understand that you are coming at me!" Qin sang finished and drank two glasses of wine very simply. There was one of my women and another of my women in his mouth... Not to mention how slippery it was. Since yanmiao promised Qin sang to support the show tonight, he will not get off his stage. If he likes to talk, let him talk. Moreover, she is also very clear that on such occasions, men want face... Qin sang takes advantage of his words, and yanmiao is up to him. Mainly, Qin sang looks like he doesn''t deserve to be beaten, but he is very measured. We will not think about such an occasion because of the excessive requirements of everyone, and we will have a good opinion of yanmiao. Of course, if that "cheek kiss" doesn''t count. "I''ll go to the bathroom." Yan Miao said, took his bag, got up and went to the bathroom. We''ve been playing for more than three hours. It''s so enthusiastic that it won''t cool down for another three hours. Seriously, yanmiao, who hasn''t played at night for a long time, is a little tired. When he came out of the bathroom, yanmiao saw Huo Qishen with both hands copying his trouser pockets and leaning lazily on the side of the aisle. Under the dim light, men are filled with the evil charm of decadence and cynicism. Such a man, in the eyes of women, has a bad sense of charm! "It''s late. I''ll take you back." Huo Qishen saw yanmiao coming and spoke faintly. Yan Miao smiled, "dear, it''s not appropriate for you to send me back tonight?" Huo Qi looked at yanmiao with deep eyes. At this moment, he seemed to have never been quiet, which made people a little hairy. "Yan Miao, are you really going to be in this circle?" Huo Qishen asked the exit. Yan Miao frowned slightly, "Huo Qishen, I really don''t understand what you said." Paused, "do you think Qin sang and I will enter this circle together?" Huo Qishen didn''t answer. Yan Miao tilted his head and sneered, "if you really want to rely on men to enter this circle..." her eyes sank. "Don''t you think it would be easier for me to go a little easier if I have Yining, my best friend?" Huo Qi frowned deeply. He knew that yanmiao misunderstood his meaning, but he didn''t want to explain inexplicably. It seems a little irritable and repulsive. Yanmiao is also angry. She has been very independent since she was a child. Whether she goes to school when she was a child or works when she grew up... She depends on her own ability, not on her parents or friends. At the moment, Huo Qishen said that she wanted to rely on men to enter the so-called circle of their upper class society. She suddenly became angry and didn''t hide her words. "Oh, by the way, I heard that your eldest brother hasn''t been married... Otherwise, I''ll talk to Li Yunze later!" Then she withdrew her eyes coldly and wanted to leave. But when his feet were lifted up, Huo Qishen grabbed his arm. "Yan Miao, are you interesting?" Huoqi opened his mouth coldly. Yanmiao looked ahead and paid homage to the welfare of old Huo Qishen, who argued with her. She knew that his eldest brother was the illegitimate son of the Huo family, but now he had the power that should have been in the charge of the crown prince of the Huo family. Huo Qishen doesn''t know what he thinks about the illegitimate son''s brother or whether the illegitimate son''s brother robbed him of his power She just knows that Huo Lianchen is Huo Qishen''s minefield and can''t step on it! Yan Miao sighed softly and felt that he was a little hypocritical at the moment. Looking sideways, she looked at Huo Qishen, "it''s very boring." She laughed at herself, "Huo Qishen, seriously, I''m not young. Unlike your men, the older, the more mature and charming... I need to think about it for myself, don''t I?" Then she took out her arm, looked deeply at Huo Qishen, and walked away. Huo Qishen stood in place and tried to shout yanmiao several times, but he finally held back. He doesn''t like to see yanmiao and Qin sang together, but what can he give yanmiao? Yanmiao''s steps seem ordinary, but only her own heart knows that she walks slower than the normal rhythm She thinks women are really hypocritical when they touch their feelings. She wanted Huo Qishen to shout at her, but she didn''t! The light mockery of "ah" seems to have no power in the background music. But such self mockery made yanmiao feel particularly astringent. One Fang Xiran is infatuated with Jin shaosi, and the other Huo Qishen is in hot pursuit... She is yanmiao, but a passer-by outside the circle. "What''s the matter?" When Qin sang saw yanmiao coming back, he was obviously lack of interest. "I''ll take you back first when I''m tired?" "Good!" Yanmiao didn''t hold on. When they heard that Qin Sang was going to send yanmiao back, those who ran the train in their mouths began to open meat jokes. "Yo, this woman is all her own. She''s afraid of the cold quilt at night. She''s going to warm it now?" "Yes, brother Qin, you are not kind..." "Ah Qin, it''s only a few o''clock. I''m taking a woman away. Don''t you make us jealous of being single?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± "Get out of here!" Qin sang picked his eyes and said with a smile, "if you are jealous, go to find a woman yourself!" Then he put his arms around yanmiao''s shoulder and gave everyone eye medicine. Huo Qishen came back in time and saw the intimacy between them. He thought of the scene of Qin sang kissing yanmiao when he just came here In addition to the dirty jokes in everyone''s mouth at the moment, he didn''t know which nerve was not connected. He came forward and grabbed yanmiao''s wrist. Without saying a word, he would take her away Chapter 1701 Huo Qishen''s move stunned the people who had been joking. Qin sang frowned instantly, but yanmiao was not taken away by Huo Qishen. When Huo Qishen was about to pull her away, she suddenly went back to the area and made him freeze in place when he wanted to take her away The atmosphere suddenly became awkward. Huo Qishen didn''t speak and didn''t pay attention to everyone''s sight. He just looked back at yanmiao with a touch of reflection. It seems to be asking something, and it seems to be wondering. "Screwdriver, isn''t that right for you?!" A familiar person said with a ha ha, "did you drink too much and see that women are wrong?" "Yes!" Someone coaxed, "although assang''s woman looks good, you can''t borrow wine and want to take it away?!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Everyone joked, but Huo Qishen didn''t let go of yanmiao. Qin sang had thought about the scene and didn''t say anything, but when Huo Qishen didn''t mean to make any concessions, he suddenly said with a cold face: "I don''t want Miao Miao to get hurt, ah Shen, you''d better let go by yourself!" Huo Qishen is usually very evil. Everyone in the field knows that he can do anything. He depends on his own happiness. Anyway, someone will solve it behind him. "I think it''s better for you to let go." Huo Qishen smiled and made people feel cold. "After all, if I don''t let go later and hurt yanmiao, it''s really hard to say." "I think it''s appropriate for you to let go!" Yan Miao finally burst out, "Huo Qishen, are you sick?" There was an awkward atmosphere originally, because yanmiao''s words seemed to be frozen. "Let go!" Yanmiao twisted his arm. "First of all, do I know you very well? Why let my boyfriend let me go and I''ll go with you? I''m not sick! In addition, if you''re really sick, I can treat you for free. Anyway, I''m also a neurologist..." The sarcastic words are different from the full face given to Qin sang just now. It can be said that yanmiao is covered with thorns. Who touches who?! Huo Qishen didn''t speak and didn''t let go. He just looked at yanmiao''s line of sight with a hint of warning. Yanmiao coldly converged his eyes. Qin sang came forward in time and broke Huo Qishen''s hand with skillful strength. He looked down at the marks on yanmiao''s wrist, frowned slightly, looked slowly at Huo Qishen, and said unhappily on his face: "ah Shen, I don''t care this time, but because everyone is mixed in the field..." after a pause, his eyes became more and more heavy, "but it''s also the only time, there''s no next time!" Qin sang coldly took back his sight, took yanmiao''s hand and left without saying anything. The original lively atmosphere became subtle, and everyone looked at each other. After Qin sang and yanmiao left, someone asked, "Huo Qishen, what''s the matter with you?" "Yes!" Someone frowned, "don''t tell me you don''t like Fang Xiran, empathy and don''t fall in love." "Even if you have empathy, falling in love at first sight is not consistent with your Huo Ershao identity!" Someone shrugged, "besides, friends and wives can''t be bullied. It''s obvious that assang doesn''t play with yanmiao casually." Huo Qishen listened to the people saying. After the cold eyes rowed, he turned and left without saying anything. People are not in the state one after another. They can''t understand Huo Qishen. What is this?! When Huo Qishen came out of the ''Night'', Qin sang and yanmiao had long disappeared. He was a little fidgety. At the thought that they might have further in-depth communication in the evening, he felt uncomfortable all over... As if his blood were shouting. Huo Qishen stopped a car casually and listened to the driver ask him where he was going. He didn''t think about it and directly reported the address of yanmiao''s house. When the driver started the car, his lips moved slightly, trying to change back to where he lived. But at last, he swallowed the words of changing the address. After arriving at yanmiao apartment, Huo Qishen leaned against her door and didn''t knock or ring the doorbell. Although he knows that yanmiao may not be back, he may have gone with Qin sang But he was suddenly afraid. If you don''t knock on the door, you can still think that you may come back But if he knocks, what does he want?! Kill Qin sang? The more you laugh, the more you laugh at yourself. In the past, even if I liked Fang Xiran, I didn''t make myself so embarrassed. What is it now?! Huo Qishen leaned his head against the wall and looked at the light that would be turned on occasionally in the corridor. He slowly closed his slightly astringent eyes after drinking. After a while, Huo Qishen slowly opened his eyes, thought about it, and decided to knock on the door. If yanmiao isn''t there, he won''t be much After all, it''s good for her to find a stable happiness. Qin Sangna, at least everyone in the circle knows that he doesn''t fool around. But after Huo Qishen knocked on the door, when no one opened the door, he found that he couldn''t control his bad temper at once. All the things he just thought were thrown behind his mind. He took his mobile phone and wanted to call yanmiao. But before the phone could be dialed, a phone call came in. He frowned and picked it up However, when he heard the people inside talking, Huo Qishen''s face suddenly changed, "I''ll come right away!" The words fell, and he left in a hurry, ignoring the others. Just as he entered an elevator and began to walk down the number, another elevator next to him arrived. "Ding" came. When the elevator door opened, yanmiao came out while talking on the phone. "I''m at the door." Qin sang answered with a slight silence and asked, "Miaomiao, tonight..." "I''m fine." "It''s too embarrassing for you to laugh," Miao said Qin Sang''s eyes were deep. "Originally, you and ah Shen really know each other!" Yan Miao smiled. "The doctor and the patient... Know each other." After a pause, she took the key to open the door and said, "it''s hard for me, a doctor, to know someone who has to report to the hospital every month!" "It''s just the relationship between doctors and patients?" Qin sang asked with a smile. "What does that matter?" Yan Miao asked. Qin Sang was silent, smiled and said, "since the relationship is simple, it seems that it is easier for me to pursue you." "..." yanmiao pulled at the corners of his mouth and found that he couldn''t even laugh, "this joke is not funny at all." "Qin sang, don''t tell me. I''ve been taking wedding photos for two days with you. You''re really interested in me." "What if I say it''s true?" Qin sang asked, "will you agree to my pursuit?" Chapter 1702 Yanmiao put down his bag, sat down on the sofa, sighed softly and said, "Qin sang, I don''t play with feelings." "I''m serious." Qin sang raised his eyebrows. "I don''t play with feelings... Otherwise, I don''t need to take you there tonight." Yanmiao didn''t speak. Qin sang said after waiting for a while: "Miaomiao, I just don''t want to find people in the circle. I feel that I have too much contact. It''s boring! I won''t live a good life..." "To tell you the truth," Yan Miao said, "I don''t want to promise you." "Why?" Qin sang frowned. "Although I don''t have to find a loving married partner," yanmiao said calmly, "but I don''t have any emotional foundation, and I don''t know when the three views of each other are different. I think if I promise casually, it''s impulsive and not in line with my character." "You mean, at least at present, we can contact..." Qin sang smiled, "I didn''t understand wrong?!" "Yes!" Yan Miao replied, "well, I''m going to wash and go to work tomorrow." Qin Sang''s original words were choked by yanmiao, so he could only respond. After yanmiao hung up the phone, he got up and went to the bathroom. Whether it''s Huo Qishen or Qin sang... She''s a woman. At the right age, when everyone around her has company, she also wants to find someone to rely on. Perhaps, that dependence is not the most suitable for yourself, but it must be good to yourself, isn''t it?! She likes Huo Qishen, but even today, what else does he have besides the possessiveness of a big man? Instead of making yourself a fool because of your feelings on a man, it''s better to give yourself and other men a chance! But what yanmiao didn''t expect at the moment was that as soon as she went to work the next day, she was greeted by... Huoqi was injured and hospitalized in the middle of the night! Looking at Huo Qishen''s bandage, yanmiao glanced coldly, subconsciously thinking that he was caused by fighting again. "Huo Qishen, how old are you? Do you think you are a teenager and fight every day during adolescence?" Huo Qishen seemed to forget his "unhappiness" last night and said with a grin, "yanmiao, do you still have a little compassion, can''t you comfort me?" "Ha ha!" Yan Miao sneered, "I''m sorry, doctor, if compassion is rampant, I can''t do this..." "Ow --" Yanmiao''s hand accidentally touched Huo Qishen''s wound, and he cried out with pain. "Doctor Yan, take it easy!" The doctor who happened to patrol the room said helplessly. Yanmiao''s tricks against Huo Qishen are known by several doctors who are "familiar" with Huo Qishen. In fact, just now yanmiao was really careless, but he didn''t bother to explain. He just said coldly: "if you can''t be a hot hand, you can''t be a doctor... So don''t expect me to comfort you!" Then she looked around and said, "OK, just take good care of your injury. I''m busy." Yanmiao didn''t stop. He said hello to the doctor who made the rounds and turned around to leave. "Yan Miao!" Yanmiao stopped, sighed, turned and looked at Huo Qishen, "why, the pain just now is not enjoyable?!" Huo Qishen bared his teeth and finally said, "Hey, I don''t have dinner at noon. Would you like to send me some?" "There are nursing workers in the hospital. You Huo Er Shao can find a nursing worker. Just go to the hospital restaurant and get you what you want to eat." Yanmiao said indifferently, didn''t pay attention to Huo Qishen, and turned and left. From beginning to end, she didn''t ask why Huo Qishen was injured. Some things always have to start and end, don''t they?! ¡­¡­ Mo palace. With the memory of star, everyone has seen his super memory as the day goes by. From the beginning of the 50 person ranking game to now, it has increased to 300 person ranking. His memory is amazing and he still won''t be confused. It seems that the little guy doesn''t have much interest in the game. As for the shrimp fishing I liked when I refreshed my memory every day, star now feels bored at all. Needless to say, for the fun related to his age, I''m afraid that only the playground provided by Shi Shaoqin can bring some of his interests. Of course, if his stone plays with him. Shi Shaoqin just finished a regular matching meeting and came out of his study. When he saw people outside, he asked, "where''s star?" "Just said to go out, Qingqing took it out." Shi Shaoqin didn''t say anything more, but stepped down the stairs with long legs and walked out slowly. Look around, not on the beach! There is no sunflower field planted before! Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and wondered whether star had gone to the factory or the two acres of newly reclaimed land behind. "Looking for star?!" Shi juechi just came over. "See anyone?" Shi Shaoqin looked back at him. Shi Jue Chi smiled and said, "I just saw star pulling Qingqing to the back." Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly. He didn''t expect that star would really go back, "I''ll go and have a look." "Yes." Shi Jue Chi answered, "let''s go!" The two brothers chatted as they walked behind. "Previously, I saw that you planned to let Mo Mo know the existence of star?" Shi Jue Chi looked sideways at Shi Shaoqin and asked. Shi Shaoqin glanced at him and looked back. "I''m going to tell star in another two years when he has complete understanding." "Let him choose to go back to his parents or finally go to XK?" Shi Jue Chi frowned slightly, "I''m afraid XK won''t let go." "So I need to wait until he has the ability to understand." Shi Shaoqin looked at Shi Jue Chi again. "Gu Beichen provoked XK himself. If his son finally chose to go back to them, he would have to pay it back by himself..." Shi juechi sighed softly. After being silent, he asked, "are you willing?" Shi Shaoqin stopped and his eyes fell on the sunflower in the sun in front of him. He gradually deepened his eyes. "It''s all star''s life and needs him to choose... We have no right to interfere in all his life directions!" He sees star as God''s salvation for his past. But redemption, not imprisonment! He doesn''t want star to have no choice because of his greed. "Shaoqin," said Shi juechi in silence, "in fact, you can wait until the appointed time with Lord Xiao, and then let star choose." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes gradually became far-reaching, "I didn''t think about it, but the longer... I''m afraid I''ll be more reluctant!" Words fall, the surrounding air suddenly becomes a little dignified and helpless. Just as Shi juechi was about to speak, there was a loud roar of "roar". Shi Shaoqin frowned in an instant, raised his feet and ran back When star''s little figure fell into Shi Shaoqin''s eyes, he saw an adult tiger jumping at him with its whole body blown up Chapter 1703 Shi Shaoqin immediately frowned. Although he knew there was a power grid across, he was afraid that the adult tiger would be completely crazy and make some moves, which would leave some bad shadows in star''s little heart. Although Star doesn''t look like a shadow at all. "Roar!" Star imitated the roar of a tiger and screamed there, grinning at the corners of his mouth. He was very happy. Qingqing is a little broken down. While watching the tiger''s actions, she looks nervous as star has a good time there. If star is injured, I''m afraid the whole Mo palace will fall into boundless darkness. "Star, the sunflower seeds are going to be turned. Let''s turn them first?" Qingqing looked at the tiger that seemed to be ready to attack and swallowed it involuntarily. Unfortunately, star had a good time, slightly puckering his small ass, grinning and bright eyes. The tiger barked there. ¡°Star£¡¡± Shi Shaoqin slightly frowned and shouted. Star glanced at Shi Shaoqin, smiled happily, pointed to the tiger and said, "stone, big cat!" "..." Shi Shaoqin slightly frowned, walked forward and picked up star. "It''s not a big cat, it''s a tiger!" "Big cat!" Star angrily corrects Shi Shaoqin and looks at the tiger. After a long-term "struggle" with the power grid, the beasts here have already had a sense of crisis. At this moment, seeing that star is not afraid at all, he keeps pointing at it. It is obvious that the tiger has begun to be anxious. However, because of the power grid, it can only linger there, open its mouth and roar from time to time... It seems to be venting its dissatisfaction and warning? Unfortunately, star, who is more than three years old, is a newborn calf and is not afraid of tigers. In addition, he believes that tigers are big cats in his consciousness. He has no sense of crisis and feels very challenging. Some people are born with the blood of conquest. Xu started from Jian Mo Huai star, and star has grown slowly under various problems. Xu shigu Beichen also has the gene that wants to conquer everything in his blood. Only then can he stand up in such a desperate situation And this kind of blood, inherited to star, he will be more urgent to the challenge. Shi Shaoqin sighed and walked with star in his arms, saying, "it''s a tiger, not a big cat!" "It''s a big cat!" While star insists, he looks at Shi Shaoqin discontentedly. Shi Shaoqin glanced at him lightly. When Shi Jue Chi smiled and looked at the big and small ones correcting each other, he ordered Qingqing, "find some cats." Qingqing was stunned at first, then understood Shi Shaoqin''s meaning and hurriedly answered. Star and Shi Shaoqin are still confronting each other. In his little heart, what he believes is difficult to change. However, Shi Shaoqin felt that star must be made aware of what danger is and... The difference between small animals and large animals. For example, cats and tigers... No matter the degree of obedience or attack, they are different from heaven and earth! Star is very unhappy! With the beginning of memory, he began to insist on many things. Especially as he grew up day by day, he seemed to be more and more determined about what he needed to do and stick to. "Drink water." Shi Shaoqin put a glass of water in front of star. "You played for a long time, didn''t you drink water?" Star didn''t speak, just picked up the water cup and put it down after a few drinks. Shi Shaoqin looked at the little guy and his angry look. Inexplicably, he had an impulse to laugh. The feeling is that when children grow up day by day and have their own thoughts, they think carefully against adults, and adults are helpless and happy about children. Shi Shaoqin sat down and looked at the sunflower field swaying in front of him with deep eyes. At that time, Jue Chi could say it easily. In another two years, star will choose for himself But at this moment, I was suddenly reluctant. Watching Star grow up around him day by day, participating in his every growth, bumping or happy... It seems that he looks forward to it. Because of the problem of big cats and tigers, star and Shi Shaoqin had a cold war for most of the day until ten cats were transported to Mo palace. In this world, there are few things that can''t be done with money. There are ten breeds of cats, including Muppets and folding eared cats, elegant Persian cats, jinjila cats... And large varieties of short haired cats. Even, there is an American short haired cat with silver and white stripes. It looks like a reduced version of the "tiger"! Shi Shaoqin was very satisfied with the staff this time. Looking at the interested look on star''s face, the corners of his beautiful mouth also overflowed with a soft smile. "Star, these are cats!" Star left his little mouth and sat in the middle of a pile of cats playing. The little guy didn''t want to admit his mistake, but he didn''t want to admit it. Sometimes, some things have to be figured out by yourself. Unfortunately, Shi Shaoqin found that his child was old, and sometimes his thoughts were beyond his comprehension. For example The next day, Qingqing turned over the melon seeds and found that star was missing! Shi Shaoqin hardly thought about it and went to the back. Sure enough, the little guy went to tease the adult tiger who often wandered around the power grid Like a tiger, it has become a new game for star. At first, everyone was very nervous. Later, Shi Shaoqin found that the little guy was interested in the cats, but his enthusiasm for teasing the tigers continued to rise. Finally, we can only send people to watch the power grid in turn, just in case of an accident, the tiger will break through the net and hurt star. As for star... Finally, Shi Shaoqin can only let him continue his game of teasing the tiger. Later, Xu Shihu was also teased by star. Every time he saw star coming, he would lie there lazily and occasionally give the little guy a boring expression ¡­¡­ "Miaomiao, what class are you in today?" Qin sang sat under a sunshade outside a cafe and sent a wechat voice to yanmiao. Yan Miao replied, "today''s day shift." "That means you''ll have either a small night or a big night tomorrow?" Qin sang asked with a smile in his mouth. Yan Miao looked at the next shift and said, "tomorrow is a big night." "Will you accompany me to a photography exhibition after work?" Qin sang said, picked up the coffee spoon and stirred the coffee slightly. Yanmiao thought for a while and thought that he would be fine in the evening. In addition, since he wanted to know what to do, he needed bilateral contact, so he agreed. She just sent out her mobile phone and saw a nurse running in in a hurry, swallowing breathlessly and saying, "doctor Yan, come on, it''s amazing..." "Huh?" Yan Miao frowned. The nurse obviously came in a hurry. After taking a deep breath, she hurriedly said, "there''s a fight... Huo Ershao is fighting with others in the ward!" Chapter 1704 "..." Yan Miao frowned more tightly. Seeing that yanmiao didn''t respond, the nurse asked curiously, "doctor yanmiao, don''t you go and have a look?" "Why should I go and see it?" Yanmiao got up, took a cup and went to the water dispenser to get water. "Isn''t it normal for Huo Qishen to fight? When fighting in the hospital, naturally, a security guard went to pull it. He was injured and the wound was torn... There are ready-made doctors." The nurse listened and looked puzzled: "doctor Yan, aren''t you..." "What am I not?" Yanmiao immediately interrupted the nurse, as if a little afraid of what the nurse would say to poke her heart. The nurse swallowed, shook her head, shrugged her shoulders and said, "well, I''ll be busy." Then she turned around, but when she got to the door, she looked at yanmiao suspiciously. Didn''t you think there was some ambiguity between doctor Yan and Huo Ershao before? How do you feel, suddenly cold down? "Miaomiao, don''t you go and have a look?" The doctor in the same office asked, "I''ll go and have a look. Are you going?" Yan Miao sighed secretly and felt that he was also hypocritical. "Go and have a look!" Yanmiao put down his water cup and went to the VIP ward where Huo Qishen lived with the doctor. As soon as the talent got out of the elevator, he heard the sharp noise, and the strange smell spread in the whole corridor. "What''s going on?" Yan Miao asked the waiting nurse. Seeing that it was yanmiao, the nurse lowered her voice and said, "I don''t know what the situation is. It seems that the people of the Huo family came. They quarreled without knowing what to say, and then they fought..." "Nobody cares?" Yan Miao frowned and looked at the doubts on the face of the security guard standing outside. "It''s family law. Who dares to take care of it?" The nurse grinned, "I heard it''s the Huo family!" "..." Yan Miao frowned and walked forward. She wanted to open the door of the ward, but unfortunately, it was locked. "It was locked as soon as I went in. There was a fight in two minutes." Someone said. Yan Miao frowned, "let them do it?" "No way, no matter who goes in or who is inside, they all ask not to go in..." "..." yanmiao rolled his eyes and went directly to the nurse station to find the spare key. If Huo Qishen is wrong with only one person in his life, it must be Huo Lianchen. Now there are two people inside. I don''t know what it looks like?! Yanmiao opened the door and was immediately "scared" by the scene in front of him The people standing at the door looked in with their necks hooked, and were very curious. Inside, a man stood proudly in front of the window with his back to the door. His body was plated with a thin halo under the sun from the glass window, showing an indescribable sense of mystery. Compared with this man, Huo Qishen is embarrassed. He was held on the sofa by the backhands of two men in suits. The two men didn''t seem to know that he was hurt, and their movements were not light at first sight. "Who the fuck let people in..." Huo Qishen''s angry voice shut up immediately when he saw it was yanmiao. Yanmiao looked at Huo Qishen, who was obviously in pain, but turned a light look. After drawing a cold eye, he looked at Huo Lianchen standing in front of the window and slowly turning around. "I''m sorry, this is the hospital. If you have family affairs to deal with, you can either go home after going through the discharge procedures for the patient, or wait until the patient is discharged." Huo Lianchen''s face was so indifferent, which was different from Huo Qishen''s usual cynical appearance. It seemed that the words "strangers should not be close" were written on his face. Huo Lianchen ignored yanmiao, but his sight crossed the two men with Huo Qishen. The two men immediately let go of Huo Qishen and stood there one after another. Their faces seemed to have been beaten with Botox and would not move at all. Huo Qishen grinned secretly. Although the two men holding him noticed, it still involved the wound on his body, which hurt a little! Yan Miao looked at Huo Qishen, gritting his teeth and forbearing, frowned slightly, and looked at Huo Lianchen. "No matter what you do, there is no way to shake my position in the Huo family... Don''t do some childish behavior." Huo Lianchen looked at Huo Qishen without any tone and said, "you do it yourself." Words fall, he didn''t say anything again, indifferently take back his sight, already lift a step to prepare to leave. When passing yanmiao, she could obviously feel that Huo Lianchen''s eyes glanced at her. At that glance, it was neither examination nor indifference, as if there was a thought-provoking emotion. Yanmiao subconsciously frowned. Just after Huo Lianchen left, Huo Qishen, who had just supported him, immediately howled. "Yanmiao, I''m dying... Help..." "..." Yan Miao looked at him coldly, "if you want to die early, you don''t have to make others feel out of the way!" Then she turned and wanted to leave. "You''re really heartless..." Huo Qishen''s voice was filled with sadness. The heartbreaking forbearance, inexplicably, touched the deepest part of yanmiao''s heart. She just turned her body and stopped, sighed secretly, went to the door and called the medical staff to come and treat Huo Qishen''s wound again. "Hey, doctor Yan..." someone joked curiously, "you said that the illegitimate son of the Huo family competes with the real crown prince. Who can win in the end?" "Not interested to know!" Yan Miao''s voice was cold. "The real crown prince lingers around the flowers all day, and his right has long been elevated by Huo Lianchen?" Someone said, "I also saw reports a few days ago that Huo Ershao''s mother has been admitted to a nursing home." Yan Miao frowned and looked at the speaker. "First, raise the real prince, and then drive away the real lady... Tut Tut, Huo Lianchen is really a good means!" The head nurse sighed and said, "no matter how good the sanatorium is, it''s hard to say what happens in his old age." The man looked at Huo Qishen''s ward and continued, "I estimate that Huo Ershao''s injury must have been caused by Huo Lianchen''s people in order to get justice for his mother." "That''s too much." Someone answered, "I was injured before, and now I come to the hospital to continue?" "Who knows the details?" "Alas, I feel that there are only a few rich people. The people in this circle are good, and the rest... Are terrible!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± There was a low voice in his ear. Yanmiao subconsciously looked at Huo Qishen''s ward. He didn''t know whether it was the spread of motherhood. He suddenly sympathized with Huo Qishen. Or... Heartache! Is he using his cynicism and dandiness against his family, or is it because he can only protect himself in this way?! Thinking, yanmiao has gone to the ward. By the time she reacted, she was already in the ward. Chapter 1705 "Fortunately, there is no big problem." When yanmiao came in, the doctor just finished checking Huo Qishen, "but don''t toss about things like today, otherwise it''s hard to say whether you have such good luck next time." Huo Qishen didn''t answer, but his eyes fell on yanmiao. The moment he saw her come in, it was obvious that there was a smile in his eyes. Just that kind of smile, is it fun or narrow-minded, or joy... No one understands. Including himself! After the doctor explained a few more words, after seeing yanmiao, he motioned to the nurse who had handled it to leave together. "Why are you frowning? It''s all right!" After the medical staff left, Huo Qishen grinned and joked, "I''ve been hurt and trained." "Why did you get hurt before?" Yanmiao didn''t know his identity or mood to ask this. She even thought Huo Qishen would not tell the truth, but she still asked. "Do you care about me?" Huo Qishen asked with a deep smile. "Ha ha!" Yan Miao smiled, "I just heard some gossip. I''m curious... Women often have a strong desire to explore gossip." "Oh?" Huo Qishen put up his arms, put his hands behind his head, looked at yanmiao with a bit of shyness in his spare time, smiled and said, "you eat with me at night, and I''ll tell you why!" "Oh..." Yan Miao said coldly when Huo Qishen thought she promised, "then I don''t want to know." With that, she turned and wanted to leave. "Hey, hey..." Huo Qishen hurriedly shouted to yanmiao and began to pretend to be pathetic. "Yanmiao, how pathetic do you think I am? My father doesn''t hurt, he is suppressed by someone, and he is hurt and beaten... Even strangers will sympathize with me when they see me so miserable, right "..." yanmiao rolled his eyes and turned to look at Huo Qishen. "I''ve been in the hospital for three days. Apart from looking at me on the first day, tell me about you... If I hadn''t been beaten, could you come and see me?" Huo Qishen said, and he didn''t know what his psychology was. "Hum, if I have a new lover and forget my old love... If I have a new man, I will be abandoned at once!" Yanmiao smiled. It was completely laughed by Huo Qishen, who seemed to be talking to himself. In fact, it was specially said for her to listen to. "Huo Qishen, what is new love and old love?" Yanmiao glanced coldly and looked at Huo Qishen, "who is the old love? Are you? Are you my old love?" "Revolutionary friendship is also love!" Huo Qishen slightly raised his eyebrows and looked at yanmiao''s disdain. He was uncomfortable. "I said yanmiao, anyway, just have a meal with you. You''re so exclusive... It''s really easy for people to think more!" "What do you think?" Yan Miao''s arms encircled his chest. It depends on what Huo Qishen wants to say. "Love me so much..." Huo Qishen said jokingly, "the closer you get to me, the more infatuated you are with me... For fear that you will be irresistible and hopelessly fascinated by me, and finally lose yourself, forget your character, abandon your temperament, and can only sing... Only I have no him in your eyes!" "...." yanmiao took a slight puff from the corner of his mouth. She didn''t know whether she was angry with Huo Qishen''s indifferent appearance, or because his words poked something deep in her heart, and suddenly the whole person felt bad. Yan Miao came forward, "yes, I''m really afraid that the closer I get, the more infatuated I become..." A strange smile crossed the corner of her mouth. When Huo Qi realized what, she saw yanmiao''s hand rise and fall... Without hesitation and pause! "Ow --" The scream was definitely sharper than that when Huo Lianchen came! "Yan... Miao!" Huo Qishen clenched his teeth and shouted. His painful faces were twisted together. In that way, it was "distressing". "Aren''t you trained for injuries?" Yan Miao sneered, "just bear it... Continue, practice!" Huo Qishen glared fiercely, and yanmiao turned angrily and left. She thought she was looking for cheap. She knew that Huo Qishen was heartless and cynical... But she still liked to come forward. What''s the relationship between the dark and her? Then let him suffer alone... Anyway, she has nothing to do with him. As Huo Qishen said, they are at most "revolutionary friendship"! When the nurses on the VIP floor saw yanmiao leave indifferently, they grinned one by one and looked sympathetically at Huo Qishen''s ward. "I really don''t know what Huo Qishen thinks?" A nurse tucked up a slot. "What is the right side of the bag to make complaints about?" the others can''t see him! How good is our doctor? Good character, though not a stunning one, it can also be a good looking team! And tall and well chosen, I don''t know if I''m blind. "If I were a doctor of inflammation, I would slap him on the wound and leave..." "Yes!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± The nurses secretly fight against injustice, but yanmiao has no mind to continue to think about Huo Qishen. As soon as the talent arrived at the Department, she was informed that there were patients in the emergency room. She went to help... Until she got off work. "I''ve just finished my emergency..." yanmiao walked to the Department while talking on the phone. "I''ll change my clothes... OK, I''ll find you in the parking lot later... Well, see you later!" Yanmiao hung up the phone and entered the office. He took off his white coat and cleaned up his makeup before leaving with his bag. Yanmiao just stepped into the elevator with her front foot. Her mobile phone rang again. She took it out and saw that it was Huo Qishen. She hung up without thinking. But the mobile phone hasn''t been installed yet. Huo Qishen called again. Yanmiao turned his eyes and picked it up after all Since she won''t pick up the goods for the second time, she must have hit it again. Although she can turn it off! But Xu is a doctor''s characteristic. Now she won''t turn off her phone if she has to, just in case something happens in the hospital "Yan Miao, are you really not going to have dinner with me?" When Huo Qishen called, he said weakly, "Huo Lianchen has removed my special care. At present, I can''t even eat... I''m a patient. It''s really miserable!" "If your family doesn''t care about you, what do I care about you?" Yan Miao sneered, "also, Huakang is still very humanized... You''re a VIP, so you can ring the call bell directly... If you can''t, you''ll find your friends." A "Ding" sound came and the elevator reached the first floor. When yanmiao stepped out of the elevator, Huo Qishen asked, "Hey, you won''t be cruel. Are you really leaving?" "Sorry, I''m going on a date..." yanmiao said with a smile. "So, I don''t have time to talk to you if you sell miserably!" After that, she hung up directly. Chapter 1706 Huo Qishen listened to the "beep beep" hanging up sound from the phone. He was stunned at first, and then suddenly sat up Because the action was too big, he suddenly pulled to the injured place, and his face was ferocious with pain. Bared his teeth, Huoqi clenched his teeth: "date? With whom?" He immediately frowned, "shit, won''t you talk to Qin sang again?!" At the thought of Qin sang and the fact that she didn''t go back to yanmiao''s house before, Huo Qishen felt as if he had been suddenly thrown into a feather and scratched his whole person. Several times, he impulsively wanted to call yanmiao again But then I thought, what''s his position? Old love? Oh, not really! So, yanmiao has a new lover... Why is he unhappy? Why not? Huo Qishen lowered his head slightly, closed his eyes, took a deep breath, crossed the corner of his mouth with a touch of self mockery, and slowly opened his eyes. "Huo Qishen, if you really want to be with yanmiao, you have to give up everything before, don''t you?" Huo Qishen murmured to himself and slowly lay back on the hospital bed. Slightly tilted his head and looked at the last light after the sunset disappeared outside. Gradually, Huo Qishen''s thoughts drifted away "I won''t admit him!" Huo Qishen, who was in adolescence, looked at the boy who was taller than him with a look of hate. "I will never admit that you are my big brother!" "Whether you admit it or not is an unchangeable fact." Huo Lianchen looked at Huo Qishen coldly, and his eyes crossed with disdain. "Just like you had to accept me for five or six years before... The next life is not just five or six years, it may be fifty or sixty years. You have to face it every day... I''m your big brother, this thing." "Er......" Huo Qishen roared and rushed to tear up Huo Lianchen''s face, which was always cold. As if he had no emotion from childhood, no matter how Huo Qishen rejected him and hated him, he was just indifferent to indifference. Unfortunately, before Huo Qishen rushed to Huo Lianchen, someone held him up. "Second young master, master Huo ordered that you can''t fight at home!" "Do I still choose time and occasion for fighting?" Huo Qishen roared again and tried to throw away the people who held him. Unfortunately, the other party is an adult and well-trained... Huo Qishen can''t get rid of it! "Let him go!" The indifferent voice overflowed Huo Lianchen''s mouth in time. Huo let go of his words, but he frowned slightly. Huoqi became more angry. He is the real prince of the Huo family, but the people at the bottom don''t listen to him, but listen to Huo Lianchen "Ah..." Huo Qi''s Scarlet eyes and rushed forward like crazy, "Oh!" A dull sound came just when he rushed to Huo Lianchen Then Huo Qi covered his stomach deeply and knelt on the ground with his legs and feet soft. Huo Lianchen looked at Huo Qishen from a commanding position, with a cold expression and a colder voice: "what else do you have besides impulse? That''s it... You still want to compete with me for the Huo family? Ridiculous!" Then he turned and left. The night seemed to be shrouded in a haze because of the contradiction between the two brothers again. Lord Huo looked at Huo Lianchen kneeling in the dark heirs hall and asked, "did Qi Shen pick it up?" "No, it''s me!" Huo Lianchen said expressionless. "Do you think you can put down your prejudice against him every time?" Huo Lianchen looked at the things in front and didn''t move. "Why should I cover him up? I don''t need him to put down his prejudice against me..." he paused, narrowed his eyes slightly and spoke slowly, "and you seem to say the opposite!" Lord Huo twisted his eyebrows and listened to Huo Lianchen''s quiet mouth: "what you should worry about is whether I will put down my prejudice against him... Isn''t it?" Lord Huo''s heart suddenly shook and his face was a little bad. No one spoke any more. It seemed as if the sound could be heard when a needle fell quietly in the space After a while, Lord Huo seemed to endure something, and his Adam''s apple rolled up and down, "since it''s the dispute you started first, you can bear it." After a pause, he took back his eyes from Huo Lianchen and said coldly, "fight!" His words fell, and someone came forward with the ox tendon whip of the Huo family that specializes in enforcing family law The sound of "Pa Pa Pa" continued. Huo Lianchen clenched his teeth. Even though his painful forehead was full of fine beads of sweat, he didn''t say a word from beginning to end. Huo Lianchen stood in the courtyard of Huo''s villa with both hands copying his trouser pockets. Looking at the gradually darkening sky, his eyes were deeper and deeper. "Huo Shao, there is news from the sanatorium. My wife has settled down." "Yes." Huo Lianchen answered faintly, and there was still no expression on his face. The people around him sighed secretly, endured it, and asked, "Huo Shao, will you let the two shaos go on like this? The public opinion outside is getting more and more..." he bit his teeth and didn''t go on. Huo Lianchen gently fanned his eyes, still indifferent and indifferent, "didn''t he protest in this way from small to large? Just get used to it!" Since childhood, Huo Qishen punished him in such a childish way Big, use public opinion to suppress him! But if he doesn''t give him a chance, can he really succeed with his little careful thinking? People around him looked at Huo Lianchen''s back and sighed helplessly. Everyone could see that Huo Shao was kind to the second young master... But the second young master couldn''t see it by himself. ¡­¡­ "Is this your work?" Yan Miao asked, standing in front of an overexposed picture of the night sky. Qin sang picked his eyebrows and smiled, "why do you see it?" "Although I don''t know how to shoot..." yanmiao looked at the picture and said, "but it''s not uncomfortable to use exposure to outline the abstract sky, but charming... It should be a very powerful technique?!" Then she pointed to the position of the artist, "although it''s an abstract QS, you can still see it. Your name is spelled first." She said, looking sideways at Qin sang. Qin sang smiled and was satisfied. "Miaomiao, I really like you more and more!" Yan Miao raised his eyebrows and made fun of Qin sang. "I''m serious." Qin sang gently shook the champagne in his hand, lowered his eyes, and said when he looked up at yanmiao again, "our circle and entertainment circle are too fake and too empty... It''s too difficult to meet someone like you!" Yan Miao gradually stopped smiling on his face. She looked at Mingming''s appearance and let people see a casual and evil Qin sang. What she said made people feel no joke... Her heart was suddenly heavy. "Miaomiao, I want you to be the most beautiful starry sky under my camera..." Qin sang said suddenly and affectionately, "would you like to?" "She doesn''t want to!" Just when Qin Sang''s words fell and yanmiao didn''t have time to speak, a voice suddenly came from behind Chapter 1707 Yan Miao and Qin sang both looked at the place where the voice came from and saw Huo Qi standing there with a deep evil spirit, smiling at the corners of his mouth, but the posture was a little strange... It should be caused by the injury on his body. "Ah Shen?!" Qin sang said softly and twisted his eyebrows slightly. He was obviously unhappy at the bottom of his eyes. Whether it was the last circle party or now... He was dissatisfied with Huo Qishen''s sudden insertion between him and yanmiao. Yan Miao also frowned, and his subconscious sight crossed Huo Qi''s deep chest. She later learned that Huo Qishen''s injury was caused by another impact after being hit by gravity. Yanmiao didn''t know whether it was a fight or something, but he knew that his was not as heavy as he thought, but it was definitely not light. Why did this man come here if he didn''t stay in the hospital well? Huo Qishen looked as if nothing had happened, although he looked very busy when he walked. "I heard there was a photography exhibition. I was bored in the hospital alone. Come and have a look..." Huo Qishen said, and naturally put his arm slightly bent on yanmiao''s shoulder. The movement looked familiar and casual, as if it was transmitting some information. Qin sang remained calm. Yanmiao had slightly turned aside and stared at Huo Qishen. Huo Qishen didn''t mind, but said with a worried joke: "I''m hurt. Can you be gentle with me as a doctor?" Yanmiao turned his eyes secretly. He was too lazy to mess with Huo Qishen. Looking at Qin sang, he said, "are there any more of your works here?" Qin sang knew what yanmiao meant and just smiled and nodded. "You take me to have a look..." Yan Miao said and turned around. Qin sang raised his feet and looked at Huo Qishen, who was a little embarrassed. When he passed him, he stopped and said, "ah Shen, I don''t know what relationship you have with Miaomiao, but now you may think there''s nothing wrong with your behavior, but don''t you think it will cause the discomfort of yanmiao?" He glanced at Huo Qishen, "and are you sure you can give yanmiao such a person who wants a stable family, a stable family?" Huo Qishen''s eyes were slightly deep, and he turned his head to Qin sang. His mouth was filled with a cynical smile, but his tone was full of thought-provoking emotion, "how do you know? I can''t... and you can?" Qin sang smiled, "just because I''m in the entertainment circle of the big dye vat, I can still be alone!" In a word, Huo Qishen''s face changed. Qin sang didn''t say anything more, but took back his sight to find yanmiao. Huo Qishen still stood in place, his eyes dark and powerful He admitted that his current situation is indeed far from Qin Sang''s "stability". However, when men and women are together, many times... Passion is greater than stability, isn''t it?! Yanmiao doesn''t care about Huo Qishen. At least, she seems to be only interested in the photography exhibition. Qin sang looked at yanmiao and shouted, "Miaomiao..." "Huh?" Yan Miao answered and looked at Qin sang. "You haven''t answered my question!" Qin sang smiled, looked at yanmiao with burning eyes and asked, "would you like to be with me?" This time, his question was simple and direct. Yan Miao stopped and looked at Shang Qin Sang''s eyes. The corners of his mouth moved back and forth several times Finally, she sighed softly and said, "Qin sang, I really want to promise you." "Then promise me!" Qin sang smiled, although he clearly knew what yanmiao''s subtext was?! "Qin sang, you know, I can''t give you the answer now." Yanmiao is a rational person. She knows what she wants and knows it clearly. She can''t escape. She knew that she could not put more on Huo Qishen, but she also clearly understood that it was irresponsible to each other to promise to work with Qin sang now. "It''s all right. I can wait until you give the answer." Qin sang raised his eyebrows, "however, I will often ask you, you should be mentally prepared, but don''t have pressure..." Yan Miao frowned slightly. Qin sang smiled. "I often ask you to make you conscious. There is an excellent man like me chasing you around you... Well, I''m afraid if I don''t mention it, you''ll forget." Yan Miao was amused by Qin Sang''s relaxed tone. She shook her head gently and smiled at him when she raised her eyes again. "Let''s go and take you to supper." Qin sang said. "We had dinner before we came and ate..." yanmiao refused. "I''m afraid of being fat if I eat late at night!" "You''re not fat!" "The usual way to comfort people!" Qin Sang was stunned, and then understood that yanmiao said he said she wasn''t fat. He couldn''t help laughing and said, "you''re really not fat... Although women want to be in good shape, they''re really bad!" Paused, "let''s go and take you to eat roadside string!" "Do you still like that?" Yanmiao was surprised. "Don''t women like to eat?" Qin sang asked, then they looked at each other and smiled, turned and walked outside the photography exhibition. After Huo Qishen''s episode passed, yanmiao and Qin sang thought he was gone. But when they arrived at the door, they saw him leaning there with his hands in his pockets, still showing cynicism. Yan Miao frowned slightly and looked at Huo Qi''s deep and white face. He didn''t know whether it was because of the wound or the light? "Yanmiao, let''s talk!" Huo Qishen. He didn''t follow them just now. First, he couldn''t stand for that long. Second, she didn''t want to embarrass yanmiao. "Huo Qishen, you''d better go back to the hospital..." yanmiao sighed, "what are you doing? Don''t you cherish yourself and let a doctor cherish you?" Huo Qishen looked at yanmiao, "you and I are just the relationship between doctors and patients?" "I..." "Ah Shen, what do you mean?" Qin sang interrupted yanmiao, "why, do you do something with your health? Don''t you think you''re a man like this?" Huo Qi looked at Qin sang deeply and said with a touch of sneer at the corner of his mouth: "let a woman... Is not a man!" With that, he stood up, regardless of the injury on his body, and pulled yanmiao. At the same time, Qin sang already held yanmiao''s other hand. Suddenly, the two men looked at each other, and the air was filled with tension and dignity gradually rising because of their confrontation. "Let go!" Huoqi''s face sank. Qin sang sneered, "this should be what I said to you!" Huo Qi''s deep eyes became dark, different from the previous cynicism. At the moment, his whole body was filled with a sense of killing, "let go, hands!" The words gnashing their teeth are full of warnings. But who is Qin sang? How many celebrities beg him to take the best photos in the entertainment industry? Even though he seems to be grounded with yanmiao now... However, he has the pride of talent. "You," Qin sang looked at Huo Qishen, and his eyes became cold, "let go!" Chapter 1708 Yan Miao turned his eyes secretly, "it''s you two, let go!" Huo Qishen and Qin sang both looked at yanmiao and saw that her face was a little bad. Huo Qishen and Qin sang let go almost at the same time. They both acted instinctively and consciously. Yan Miao looked at Huo Qishen and Qin sang, "I won''t eat supper tonight..." Qin Thornton nodded for two seconds, "OK!" Just when Huo Qishen thought yanmiao would leave with him, although it was possible to send him back to the hospital, he didn''t have time to be proud, so he didn''t see anyone coming to say hello to him. He left! Yes, ignore him... Then, go! "Yan Miao!" Huo Qishen endured the pain in his chest and shouted. Yanmiao kept walking, but said coldly, "I''m not your attending doctor. You go out of the hospital without permission, and I don''t need to take responsibility... So, can you love back!" She walked to the side of the road. There was a car waiting there. She got on the car directly. After yanmiao reported his address, he looked out of the window Seeing that Huo Qishen didn''t know what he said to Qin sang, he walked towards the roadside in a strange posture. Yanmiao forbeared, but he didn''t manage Huo Qishen. In fact, whether in private or as a doctor, it is irresponsible to treat Huo Qishen with such indifference. But she didn''t want to be so ambiguous with him. In the end, he was still the cynical Huo Er Shao, and what about her?! If you are hurt, you can only pity yourself! Just as yanmiao left, Huo Lianchen''s mobile phone rang "Huo Shao, the second young master went to find Miss Yan." The reporter said, "Miss Yan finally left by herself." Huo Lianchen sat on the chair, with a glass of red wine standing on the small table next to him. "When did he go there?" "After eight o''clock in the evening, I went in and waited at the door." "Oh?" Huo Lianchen listened, lowered his eyes, and scratched a shallow and almost invisible smile at the corner of his mouth, "it seems that Huo Er Shao is serious this time..." "Huo Shao, if the second young master is really serious about Miss Yan, then madam..." the reporter hesitated and didn''t go on. In fact, he can''t guess Huo Shao''s mind. Mrs. Huo has an obsession with being equal to her family, which is also the root of the changes in the Huo family. If the second young master really finds yanmiao, I''m afraid... What happened two days ago will only be more sharp. Huo Shao''s mind is for the good of Er Shao? Or to make the lady completely collapse? There was a hang up tone on the phone, and the reporter was slightly stunned and grinned secretly. The Huo family is now in power. What if the second young master is the crown prince of the Huo family? Always, power is not in hand, everything is idle. ¡­¡­ Qi Yining suddenly laughed when he Yining said something. "Still laughing?" Yan Miao turned his eyes. "You are a full man, but you don''t know that a hungry man is hungry!" "No, I think Huo Qishen is actually quite interesting..." he Yining looked at yanmiao, rolled his eyes, smiled and said, "you are too rational. It''s good to have such a feeling of Huo Qishen." "Ha ha!" Yanmiao pie his mouth. Why should Ning hand over disposable medical gloves to yanmiao, looking at her while getting the medicine, he said, "but what does he mean? He went and didn''t force it too much?" Paused, "I heard Li Yunze say that his injury is still very serious... In order to wait for you, I waited at the door for more than an hour, which is also strong." Speaking of this, yanmiao''s actions stopped slightly. When I came to work in the morning, I heard the nurse gossip that Huo Qishen secretly ran out of the hospital last night. When he came back, he was seriously injured because of poor blood. Yan Miao sighed secretly and endured to let himself not think about Huo Qishen. The man didn''t know what was wrong yesterday. What if she thought more and turned back, the man was just joking? "Have you been resting lately?" Yan Miao asked. "Dean Ma''s dog leg," said this, why would you rather roll your eyes, "I went to work this morning and was told that I only need to report to the hospital every day... The Department stopped my outpatient class and surgery." Yan Miao smiled and said not surprisingly, "who let Li Yunze hold a lot of things in the medical field?" He Yining felt a touch of sweetness in his heart. No matter whether the past memory is really confused, but now she feels very happy. "Yan Yan, do you intend to further develop with Qin sang or think about Huo Qishen?" He Yining said, pointing to the location of zhiyanmiao''s heart. Yanmiao put the reagent tube into the machine and said with a slight sigh, "seriously, maybe I''m too serious all day, so it''s very attractive to see Huo Qishen''s being so informal." "However, Qin sang, you think it is suitable to live." He Yining asked. "Sort of." Yanmiao laughed at himself and said, "but people, especially women... Emotional things are very hypocritical! Everyone thinks it''s wrong to marry in the future... Either he doesn''t marry a lover, or his man is not as good as other men!" "I don''t know why. Now I feel that Li Yunze is pretty good..." he Yining suddenly laughed. "Yes, Li Yunze of your family wants to have Yan, money and love." Make complaints about the eyes, laugh and Tucao, "I see now, I am dog food!" "Puff" sound, why would you rather laugh, some can''t help yourself. "But ah, life, how much happiness you want to enjoy, how much pain you have to bear!" Yanmiao shrugged and wondered why he would rather have the hardships of the past 20 years in exchange for Li Yunze''s worldly treatment. How many women can do it? Why should they be steadfast and single-minded to a man when they are hurt again and again?! She can''t do it! Therefore, this is also the reason why most women regret marrying after they make do well. I can''t do it myself. Why do I ask so much?! "So?" Why rather lean on one side of the table, "you said so much, don''t you think it''s a pity that there is no love in your life and only stability?" "Didn''t anyone tell you not to expose others to your face?" Yanmiao turned his eyes and felt helpless. He Yining smiled and just wanted to say something when a nurse came in "Doctor Yan," said the nurse hurriedly, "Huo Qishen''s condition is suddenly bad. Doctor Zhang asked me to come and call you for consultation. You may have to enter the operating room!" Yan Miao was stunned at first. Then he walked out with the nurse and asked, "what''s the situation? Why do you suddenly want to enter the operating room?" Chapter 1709 He Yining worried and followed. "Dr. Zhang, what''s the situation?" After yanmiao passed, he saw that Doctor Zhang was telling someone to send Huo Qishen to the operating room. She looked at Huo Qishen, who was already unconscious, and immediately frowned. "God, you''re still idle at the moment. You go into the operating room with me first..." Dr. Zhang said. "I''ve called Li Shao." While walking to the operating room with yanmiao, he continued, "if this problem is not handled well, it may cause..." He didn''t go on, but yanmiao already raised his heart, "is it oppressing the spinal nerve?" "Yes!" Doctor Zhang nodded and looked at yanmiao. His mouth moved back and forth as if to say something, but he didn''t say it before the operation. He Yining was just different from yanmiao when he got on and off the elevator. The elevator missed. After asking the nurse, he also went to the operating room and called Li Yunze. When she came, Li Yunze happened to go to the pharmaceutical factory, so she went to yanmiao. After listening to the nurse''s general description, she almost knew Huo Qishen''s situation at the moment Spinal nerve is a very fragile and sensitive existence in human body. If it is not handled properly... Why would you rather look at the number of elevators sliding down and frown. "I''ve come out of the pharmaceutical factory," Li Yunze said as he seemed to know why he would rather ask. When he got through the phone, "there''s no problem with yanmiao technology in dealing with spinal nerves. I''ll be there in a minute." "Yes." Why would you rather answer, "then drive slowly." "OK." Li Yunze answered and pulled off the Bluetooth headset while hanging up the phone. He Yining went directly to the operating observation room. God didn''t know what the situation was today, either in the emergency room or in the operating room. Now there are no people to replace yanmiao. It''s not yanmiao''s poor surgical skills, but her fear of personal emotions... It''s better for her not to have surgery for insurance. After all, nerve surgery, a little mistake will cause irreparable damage. Yanmiao is under great pressure. Although Dr. Zhang didn''t say it clearly, she knows that Huo Qishen''s injury oppresses her nerves. I''m afraid it was caused by standing outside the photography exhibition for too long last night. This person is usually cynical. Even if the situation is bad in the morning, she doesn''t care Yanmiao is cooperating with Doctor Zhang in the operation, and her heart is getting more and more nervous. Doctor Zhang looked at yanmiao. "Wait, I''ve got congestion here. You have to do your part first..." he looked at the eye time again. "Li Shao came from the pharmaceutical factory. You may not be able to wait in time. I''m afraid you should start first in the early stage." Yanmiao swallowed nervously, looked at Huo Qishen who was anesthetized, and nodded solemnly. Doctor Zhang''s men kept moving. "Don''t be nervous," he said, guiding yanmiao. "It''s a big deal. What''s the matter... You can marry him and make amends." The originally tense atmosphere, because Doctor Zhang''s half joking words made yanmiao a little relaxed. "What he thinks is beautiful!" Yan Miao glanced at Huo Qi deeply. "Well, then you can have a good operation..." Dr. Zhang said with a smile. Yanmiao took a deep breath, pulled his lips and continued to operate. She doesn''t want Huo Qishen to have something to do. From the doctor''s point of view, from a personal point of view... It''s the same. No matter what happens to them in the future, people always need to be healthy. The sound of "Hula" came. Just when yanmiao was ready to take over, the door of the operating room opened. Li Yunze came in with his hands disinfected "You go on." Li Yunze said calmly, "I''ll be the deputy." Yan Miao looked sideways at Li Yunze and frowned slightly. The nurse dressed Li Yunze in surgical clothes and gloves, and heard him say, "you can''t have surgery related to yourself in the future, and you can''t do it!" In a word, yanmiao was grateful. She nodded her lips, subconsciously looked into the observation room, and saw why her hands were better than her thumb. Yan Miao smiled. While taking back his sight, Li Yunze had stood aside, "now I take over..." Each operation is carried out as if the doctor is competing for the patient''s life with the God of death of different sizes. In the world, no operation has a 100% success rate... Every doctor who enters the operating room needs to complete each operation with the fear of life. At this moment, yanmiao told himself The person lying down is not the man she wants to be with, but just a patient waiting for her treatment. Xu thought so. Xu thought Li Yunze was around. She was a big man in the medical field, both outside God and in her heart and lungs. She was very determined. The operation ended in four hours and everything went well. Li Yunze gave yanmiao an encouraging look and went out of the operating room first. He Yining handed him a glass of water and said with a smile, "it''s hard!" A little, "thank you." "Well, that sounds good!" Li Yunze hugged he Yining and smiled. She knew that her so-called thanks was because he gave yanmiao trust. Every doctor needs to grow up, and entering the operating room is the biggest test and investigation of every doctor''s technology, ability and psychology. With this experience, yanmiao''s achievements in God may be further advanced. After everything was arranged for Huo Qishen, yanmiao looked left and right, then looked at Huo Qishen, and suddenly felt that he was a little desolate. After copying the data, the nurse saw that yanmiao looked a little wrong and asked suspiciously, "doctor yanmiao, what''s the matter?" "Didn''t you inform your family?" Yan Miao asked. "Notice," the nurse sighed, "someone sent the operation consent, but the Huo family didn''t show up." Yanmiao frowned and thought of the various between Huo Qishen and Huo Lianchen. In addition, his mother was sent to the sanatorium. Suddenly, maternal love flooded again. "In fact, it''s pathetic to think about it." The nurse looked at Huo Qishen. "What about having money? There''s basically no difference between having family and not having family... Looking natural and unrestrained, it''s actually a kind of imprisonment." Yanmiao looks at the nurse and wants her to stop talking Because the more the nurse said, the more confused her heart became. At the moment, she even couldn''t tell whether she sympathized with Huo Qishen or loved him! "Doctor Yan..." "Huh?" Yanmiao suddenly woke up from his thoughts and looked at the nurse with a trace of loss. The nurse came forward slightly. Knowing that Huo Qishen couldn''t hear it at the moment, she lowered her voice and said, "in fact, do you think you and Huo Qishen are really destined?" "..." Yan Miao frowned slightly. The nurse smiled, "you see, you are going to have a big night today, but you have to change your shift because Dr. Li has something to do, and you have to change to today''s day shift... You see, when you are here, Huo Qishen wants to enter the operating room, and everyone is busy, so you can only follow up." She said with a stronger smile, "the most important thing is, did you find that Huo Qi went to the hospital ten times and you were on duty nine times?" Chapter 1710 "Such fate, I would rather not." Yan Miao rolled his eyes and whispered, "it''s really irritable. Other people''s fate is serious. How can it become the fate between doctors and patients when you get to her?" Then she unconsciously looked at Huo Qishen and felt a little blocked in her heart. On weekdays, does he use cynicism to cover up his inner desire and care for family affection? In fact, Huo Lianchen is Huo Qi''s deep pain, but it seems that... She didn''t hear too much dissatisfaction with this brother from him. On reflection, he is actually a child who has not grown up. He uses injury to attract the attention of his family. Unfortunately, I''ve been hurt a lot, just like the sheep herding children... My family doesn''t care anymore. "Well, there''s another gossip. Do you want to listen to it?" The nurse asked with a smile. Yan Miao said with a sweat on his face, "I said... When did our hospital have so many gossip?" "There''s no way. Who let the VIPs in our hospital live in the whole city of Los Angeles?" The nurse blinked and said with a smile, "do you know how Huo Qishen was injured this time?" "How did you get hurt?" Yan Miao asked subconsciously. "Listen to the gossip of another patient," said the nurse, "Isn''t Huo Qishen''s mother in the sanatorium? It seems that she is emotionally unstable. She is either dying or making a noise all day... She went to the rooftop to jump off the building that day. It''s no use trying to persuade anyone. She sat by the side of the building, looked at the air cushion made by the fire brigade, and said that she won''t jump on the mat or let them receive it." Yan Miao frowned. "Then Huo Qishen passed by. Unfortunately, when Mrs. Huo saw him, she became more excited and scolded all kinds of things... It''s useless to scold anything, but Huo Lianchen can''t argue for anything... Anyway, she scolded anything that was ugly!" "How can there be such a mother?" Yan Miao frowned. Xu''s mother''s love is rampant. Although her family is not rich, she can''t understand the kind of parents who are bad for her children, or the husband and wife who seem to be in harmony all day because she is well-off and her parents are very loving. "It''s nothing..." the nurse lowered her voice slightly. "Mrs. Huo asked Huo Qishen to come to her, just when Huo Qishen wanted to pull him... Then she suddenly went crazy and pushed him down!" "Ah?!" Yan Miao immediately stared. "But fortunately, there is a fire air cushion, or..." the nurse seemed to have a sense of empathy. Yanmiao knew that Huo Qishen was hit by gravity twice, but he didn''t expect this to happen for the first time. How sad is that? Mother felt that her son was useless, so she pushed him downstairs... The main son is still so old! "It''s nothing," the nurse continued. "What''s terrible is that after Mrs. Huo pushed Huo Qishen downstairs, she seemed to wake up all at once, screaming, regretting and afraid... Then she jumped down!" "..." yanmiao pulled out uncontrollably from the corner of his mouth. "The problem is, I don''t know whether it was intentional or unintentional. She specially chose a place without fire air cushion... At that time, Huo Qishen was still on the fire air cushion, so we didn''t have time to respond and pick it up. Finally, Huo Qishen reacted quickly, rushed over and became a human flesh cushion... That''s why there was a second impact. The wound on her chest was due to the broken tip on the ground Stone. " The nurse sighed deeply, "you said that this rich family has grudges. It''s really boring... I''ve never seen so harmonious with young Li family." Even Gu Beichen, the family used to be restless?! "What about the parents of the Huo family? Don''t you care?" Yanmiao was suddenly curious. The nurse shrugged. "That''s what I asked the patient. The patient said that the Huo family has been abroad for a long time and hasn''t come back yet..." "That is to say, now the Huo family is completely in the hands of Huo Lianchen?" Yan Miao asked. "It''s estimated that it''s almost..." the nurse said uncertainly. Yan Miao frowned. Deep in his eyes, he was completely confused with Huo Qishen. She suddenly thought that Huo Qishen always had dinner with her and pretended to be pathetic... Maybe he didn''t pretend to be pathetic, but didn''t want others to see his real pity. Yanmiao sits in front of the window of the leisure hall with a cup of iced coffee and looks at the branches and leaves swaying with the wind outside. Gradually, her thoughts become free. "Yanmiao, sometimes I don''t have to ask Fang Xiran..." once, after Huo Qishen was drunk, he laughed and said, "just, I have no choice, so I hope to find a rich woman who is similar, who doesn''t look hypocritical all day, but debauchery in her bones!" "Yanmiao, I''ll tell you, Fang Xiran, I just like her. She doesn''t have the arrogance of the red three generations, and she has the drive to ask for whatever she wants... In fact, you also have this strength, but it''s a pity..." What a pity? Yan Miao guessed at that time, but she was not the one he Huo Qishen wanted to love, right? Now, Huo Qishen actually wants to say that it''s a pity that she''s not a member of a rich family, is she? Don''t most of the rich and powerful families want to be equal? The self mocking gently pulled down the corners of his mouth, yanmiao drooped his eyes and sighed gently. Sometimes, it''s better to see your current situation clearly, not to be forced or humble Just thinking, yanmiao''s mobile phone rang. She picked it up, saw it was her mother, smiled and picked it up, "Mom..." "Didn''t disturb your sleep? I remember you should be on the night shift today..." Yan''s mother asked with a smile. "My colleagues and I have changed shifts. We are on the day shift today. We just got off work and still haven''t left the hospital." Yan Miao asked with a smile, "Mom, why do you remember calling now?" "Isn''t Yining getting married?" Yan''s mother smiled and said, "thinking that she doesn''t lack anything, I made a set of Chinese bridegroom''s and bride''s clothes... When you went to school together, didn''t she shout that she would get married and have to ask her mother to send her a set?!" "You''re hiding hard enough. Now you say..." yanmiao smiled. "Yining will be happy if he knows." Yan''s mother used to do embroidery. Later, she made clothes in the factory. She did a good job in manual work. Now when I am old, I seldom embroider by hand. After all, it is useless. "It''s not easy for her and Li Yunze. They''ve been around for so many years. It''s good to be together." Yan''s mother said, inexplicably sad, "Alas, Yining is going to get married, Zihan is settled, but you haven''t had a love so far..." she said, and suddenly some little complained, "Miaomiao, girls are not like boys, and when they get old, they choose to burn..." "Mom..." Yan Miao shouted, helpless. "Miaomiao, don''t you like boys?" Yan''s mother paused, "that... If you like girls, don''t don''t tell your mother, mother isn''t no..." "Mom, what are you talking about?" Yan Miao immediately interrupted Yan''s mother, "my sexual orientation is right..." Before he finished speaking, yanmiao''s mobile phone was suddenly taken away. He heard a boy speak indifferently: "she likes men, aunt, don''t worry!" Chapter 1711 The sudden male recognition voice stunned Yan''s mother and forgot her reaction for a moment. Not only Yan''s mother, but also Yan Miao, who looked at the man at the moment, looked surprised and forgot the reaction for a time. Huo Lianchen looked at yanmiao and said politely, "aunt, yanmiao and I still have something to talk about. Hang up your phone first... If you have a chance, you must come and visit." As soon as Yan''s mother heard it, she was elated and hurried to say, "it''s all right. Just talk to Miaomiao... Have a good talk. Come back, aunt will cook some specialty dishes for you!" "OK!" Huo Lianchen''s voice is always indifferent, but there is an unspeakable emotion. When he hung up the phone, his eyes showed a faint sense of alienation that didn''t need to be intentional in his body. Yanmiao was surprised that he still didn''t respond. Looking at Huo Lianchen, he didn''t know how to respond for a long time. To recognize Huo Lianchen is not only that she has no face blindness, but also because Huo Qishen talks more. If she occasionally sees Huo Lianchen''s figure on the news, she can''t help looking at it. There is nothing good in her impression of this person... Well, it''s also because Huo Qishen hates Wu and Wu! However, the way he spoke to his mother just now, although he was also very cold, it''s conceivable that a mother who can''t see a real person should not feel... Even, from his voice, there can be a sense of elegant politeness. That is a kind of cultivation under magnanimity. Huo Lianchen returned his mobile phone to yanmiao and looked at her calmly without talking. Yanmiao took a breath secretly, and really wanted to pour the cold coffee in front of him on Huo Lianchen''s face. Shit, the rich are great?! No matter who is the person in power of the Huo family, Huo Qishen, who may be paralyzed, is his brother... He is in power now. Won''t he look like when he is operated on?! "Very angry?" Huo Lianchen spoke softly, with a touch of complex emotion in his voice. Yan Miao smiled, a fake smile. "Excuse me, do I know you? You take my phone without authorization and talk to my mother... If you are impolite, don''t mention it first. Should I clap my hands and say hello? You explain to my mother. I don''t have to bother." "Isn''t it?" Huo Lianchen''s tone is still faint. "Ha ha!" Yan Miao sneered, "you must not have enjoyed the happiness of being nagged by your mother?" She looked at Huo Lianchen and tried to find some emotion on his face. In fact, her words were a little vicious to Huo Lianchen. However, at the thought of listening to the nurse''s gossip about Huo Qishen at that time, she had a great flood of maternal love Seeing Huo Lianchen at this moment, I naturally have a little open mouth. Unfortunately, after yanmiao finished, he didn''t see any emotion from Huo Lianchen''s face. "I really can''t enjoy..." Huo Lianchen slowly leaned back in his chair, his mouth seemed to have a smile, but he couldn''t see clearly. "After all, some people are nagged every day. It''s not happiness, but a kind of imprisonment and... Irritability under torture!" "..." Yan Miao looked at Huo Lianchen and pulled out uncontrollably. This guy is killing without blood! Did he mean that Huo Qishen was said to be useless by Mrs. Huo?! Yanmiao took a breath secretly and didn''t want to continue the discussion with Huo Lianchen. After all, she''s too powerful to be a doctor. Yanmiao picked up the mobile phone on the desk and wanted to get up, but he heard Huo Lianchen say, "you are the doctor who participated in Huoqi deep spinal nerve surgery, aren''t you?" Yan Miao stopped trying to get up, and she didn''t know what to think. I was thinking, if Huo Lianchen is the kind of brother who looks evil but actually cares about his brother and hates iron but not steel... In fact, he is still the kind of brother who cares about his brother very much? "And then?" Yan Miao was smart and didn''t say he knew Huo Lianchen, "and who are you?" "You know who I am." Huo Lianchen said faintly, "otherwise, I won''t see so many complex emotions in my eyes while I''m surprised." "...." Yan Miao was speechless for a moment. Huo Lianchen looked at yanmiao''s appearance and scratched a faint smile at the bottom of his eyes, "although the operation was successful, will there be sequelae?" "Any operation has risks and unpredictable potential risks." Yan Miao also spoke faintly. "Yes." Huo Lianchen answered and didn''t ask again. Yan Miao waited for a while and slightly dilated his pupils. That''s it. Huo Lianchen''s "care", that''s it?! Shit! Yanmiao feels that her maternal characteristics will make her compassion overflow out of control. After listening to Huo Qishen''s things, she was already nervous. Seeing Huo Lianchen like this at the moment, she was so angry that she was'' rubbing ''straight up! "Mr. Huo, if there''s nothing else, I''m sorry... Excuse me!" While Yan Miao said this, he got up and turned around to leave without any stop. "Doctor Yan..." Huo Lianchen opened his mouth and looked at yanmiao, who kept walking. He said slowly, "I lack a wife. Are you interested?" "...." yanmiao stopped, his eyes turned and hissed. She turned slowly and looked at Huo Lianchen. She felt that the man must have been pinched by the door before he came... Sick! "Don''t worry, you won''t have less things a woman should enjoy..." Huo Lianchen didn''t seem to see the dislike and contempt at the bottom of yanmiao''s eyes, but said faintly, "there should be no less pursuit!" "Mr. Huo, I can show you if you are ill, or free... Private gift!" Yan Miao gritted his teeth and said, glancing coldly at Huo Lianchen, turned and wanted to go. But the talent took two steps. She secretly relieved her breath, bit her teeth, turned around and looked at Huo Lianchen again. With a sneer on the corners of her mouth, she said slowly: "Mr. Huo, if you are going to pursue me because Huo Qishen has a little private relationship with me... I advise you, you might as well go after Fang Xiran!" Huo Lianchen put a smile on the corner of his mouth and didn''t speak. Yanmiao clenched his hand with the bag and said coldly, "also, you have fought for everything that should be enjoyed by your brother. Now you have to force him to be miserable. Even if he has an operation, there is no one waiting outside... Because I am his friend, you have to fight for it. Won''t your conscience hurt?!" Huo Lianchen still didn''t speak, but his eyes were deep. "Oh, you won''t hurt..." yanmiao said with a sneer at the corner of his mouth, "because you have no conscience!" Then she turned away without stopping "Yan Miao," Huo Lianchen''s words came from behind again, "you must love Huo Qishen very much?" Chapter 1712 Yanmiao''s heart was suddenly knocked. The sense of contradiction that was obviously open, but she didn''t want people to talk about because of that pride made her feel hypocritical and sad at the same time. Huo Lianchen got up and walked slowly to yanmiao. "It doesn''t matter," he said to himself, "I don''t care who you have in mind now, because soon... I don''t care who you have in mind, I will let..." he pointed to the position of the heart behind yanmiao and slowly said the second half of the sentence, "... Here, become me!" If you look down upon me with arrogance, you will be overbearing. Obviously, it''s annoying, but inexplicably, it doesn''t seem to be annoying from Huo Lianchen''s mouth, but I feel my heart trembling. It was an innate magic that made people have to listen to him. Yanmiao wanted to refute, but when he turned and looked at Huo Lianchen, his mouth moved several times, and there was no way to say anything? Huo Lianchen seemed to be very satisfied with yanmiao''s reaction. He looked back indifferently without saying anything. He crossed her with his trouser pocket with one hand and left Everything seems like a joke. Yan Miao looked confused and slowly turned to look at the back of Huo Lianchen leaving. For a long time, she couldn''t respond... Until the doctor who came in to buy coffee called her. "Doctor Yan, what''s the matter? I''ve been standing there..." Yanmiao regained his mind and pulled the corners of his mouth awkwardly, "I was distracted just thinking about things." After a pause, she said hello to the doctor and left. ¡­¡­ After leaving the leisure hall, Huo Lianchen didn''t go to see Huo Qishen and left the hospital directly. "Huo Shao," the driver looked at Huo Lianchen from the rearview mirror and asked, "do you want to go to the sanatorium?" "Yes." Huo Lianchen responded faintly and glanced at Huakang hospital. The driver subconsciously looked at Huo Lianchen and thought, Huo Shao came to the hospital to see the second young master, and then followed him to the sanatorium... Do you want to tell his wife about the second young master, or what?! Never, no one understands Huo Shao. No matter what the outside world says, he always goes his own way. Even, he seems to dislike that others say he is too little. He never shows mercy to his wife or second young master The driver sighed softly and sympathized with his wife and the second young master. One is in a nursing home, one is in a hospital, and there is no family around! ¡­¡­ He Yining is waiting for Li Yunze to cook. She and yanmiao are talking on video. Listening to what she said about Huo Lianchen, she has no compassion... Smiled. "Are you still laughing?" Yan Miao rolled his eyes. "Tell me, why can''t you be as normal as Gu Beichen and Li Yunze?" "Li Yunze is the only one in his family. Although there were so many people in Gu Beichen''s family, he is the only son!" Why would you rather pull a grape and put it in your mouth. Yan Miao heaved a sigh and said to he Yining, "Yining, what should I do?" "What to do?" After he Yining asked, he suddenly responded, "do you suddenly feel that Huo Qishen is so poor that you suddenly burst out of maternal characteristics?!" Although he Yining can''t remember Li Yunze''s previous love, he still knows the things of the people around him. Fang Zihan is a small man, but he has a big heart... He can''t hide his worries and has a stubborn temper. It belongs to the kind of self-conscious apology after she knows she is wrong and has to be right and let others admit that she is right. Yanmiao is the most rational of the three. Therefore, when she goes to school, she is the lubricant between the three. If there is anything, she is the one who can help most. As the saying goes, maternal love is rampant... I think the whole world should be in a good situation, and the bad must become good. "What should I do? Come and scold and wake me up..." yanmiao drooped his shoulders. "I think I''ll kill myself." "I love you deeply, and now there''s another problem." He Yining grabbed another grape, "otherwise, you first determine the relationship with Qin sang, force yourself, and you will slowly..." Looking at yanmiao''s expression, why should Ning sigh, "Yanyan, you won''t like Qin sang, will you? We are all dead hearted. If we like a person, it''s difficult to change." She didn''t think about what she was like with Li Yunze before, because she fell in love with Li Yunze''s doting now. That feeling makes her feel very happy every day. "Maybe it''s a little possible before today. After today, it''s impossible." Yan Miao sighed, "forget it, let me tangle slowly alone. Anyway... It''s still me who makes the final decision." "Yes." Why should Ning answer the voice, smiled and said, "forget Huo Lianchen, just think about Qin sang and Huo Qishen." Yanmiao shrugged helplessly, "by the way, my mother sent you an express." "What?" Why should I brighten my eyes. "Of course it''s a wedding gift for you and Li Yunze." Yan Miao raised his eyebrows, "look forward to it!" Why rather wrinkled his nose and didn''t continue to ask anything, waiting for a surprise. After hanging up the video call, he Yining got up and went to the kitchen. Li Yunze just poured out the soup. Seeing why Yining came in, he smiled and said, "you can have dinner and wash your hands." With the doctor Li Yunze, he Yining, a gynecologist, felt that he didn''t need to worry at all. Whether it''s diet or other aspects, Li Yunze does everything in detail. Giving her and a pair of babies in her stomach is the best and most intimate. "Li Yunze..." "Huh?" Li Yunze put the soup bowl in front of he Yining. "What kind of person is Huo Lianchen?" He Yining asked curiously, "when I was a child, I remember occasionally meeting at a banquet, and he also looked cold." Because Gu Beichen was very sunny when he was a child, and Li Yunze and Lin Xiangnan were very cheerful, why would he rather not pay attention to those people with strange personalities and don''t like to play with the second and third generations of dandies. All, the impression of Huo Lianchen is... Strangers are not close! "He?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "What are you doing, looking for yanmiao?" He Yining nodded. "What does that person say..." Li Yunze put a dish in his mouth, thought for a while, and then said slowly, "heart is cold, people are cold, and the means will not be softer than Beichen." Why rather turn over his eyes, "who cares about him in the mall? I mean this person, a single person!" Li Yunze smiled. "There''s no scandal. Maybe it''s because he was born. He never fooled around." He motioned why he would rather eat while listening. "Even the people around him are men and never bring women to the occasion... If this person has no psychological and physical problems, he should be a very responsible man." "So?" He Yining continues to turn his eyes. "So, if he wants to chase yanmiao, it''s good." Li Yunze said with a smile, "you let yanmiao promise!" Chapter 1713 He Yining was speechless about Li Yunze''s remarks, and glanced angrily, "I really don''t have to talk to your man about such a thing!" "Why?" Li Yunze was puzzled and looked as if he could talk very well. Why should I rather ''ha ha'', pick my eyebrows and bite my teeth and say: "because I''m not on the same channel!" Li Yunze smiled and signaled why Yining had dinner first before he opened his mouth: "Huo Lianchen, we don''t have much contact. The most is the contact at the reception on weekdays. We say hello and don''t have deep friends." "Continue." He Yining said, picked up the bowl and took the dish Li Yunze had given her. Although only two people eat, she has no pressure to cook, but she still likes Li Yunze''s instinctive behavior of taking care of him... She feels very warm and happy. "Most of the Huo family''s forces are in the north of the city, and the Gu family and the emperor group are in the city. Before Beichen took over, the Huo family''s forces under Huo Lianchen were almost the same as the Emperor..." Li Yunze continued. "This man has a head and is calm enough, but the wind evaluation from the outside world is not good." "However, it''s all people''s family background. Much said, that is to entertain the public. For us, it''s to listen." Li Yunze continued, "to tell Huo Qishen''s brother..." Why Ning stopped eating and looked at Li Yunze with curiosity in his eyes. "From my personal point of view..." Li Yunze saw he Yining''s gossip face, gently pinched her nose, stared at her dissatisfaction, and continued with a comfortable smile. "Huo Qishen''s big and small disasters continue. Although no one paid attention to the Huo family, you didn''t find it, and he didn''t have any trouble?" Everyone will only magnify bad things and ignore those seemingly insignificant things. In fact... Is the thing with heart. Yes, Huo Qishen fights and is cynical It can be said that 99% of them are dandies. It''s just that this dandy won''t be like some nonsense second generation. It''s not bad water in his bones. But anyway, with all kinds of things going on, Huo Qishen is comfortable... At least, he doesn''t have any worries about himself. "Huo Qishen doesn''t necessarily know these things." Li Yunze put down his chopsticks and simply said, "but he and Huo Lianchen are a little embarrassed. Naturally, Huo Qishen won''t think about those things, or... Think about the bad." Why should Ning curl his lips, "in fact, now... It''s better for Yan Yan to be with Qin sang." Li Yunze knew why she would rather care about her friends, but she still pointed out: "love, cold and warm... So, who yanmiao likes, or who she is with in the end, is her own choice..." "But isn''t it better to fall in love and be together again?" He Yining snorted. Li Yunze looked at he Yining and was a little angry. He smiled happily and shouted, "silly Ning..." "Stay sharp!" Why rather wrinkle your nose to fight back. Li Yunze was stunned and laughed loudly He Yining looked at his happy appearance, and suddenly the corners of his mouth also spread a smile. It seems to be a kind of comfort after thousands of years of silence, which is finally understood and released... A kind of happiness, with your happiness around you! ¡­¡­ Huo Lianchen looked at the door of the sanatorium, his eyes slightly deeper, opened the door and got out of the car. This nursing home is not the best nursing home in Los Angeles... But the top three can still be ranked. From medical reserve to personnel service, there is humanization under normalization. "Huo Shao." The man on duty said that Huo Lianchen came and greeted with a smile. Huo Lianchen just nodded slightly, didn''t say anything, and went to Mrs. Huo''s room. The voice of whispering came from behind, as if helpless, and as if tangled under gossip. "Oh, it''s going to be noisy again later." "Just settled down yesterday, and there will be another wave today, which is also very disturbing..." "But what does Huo Shao mean?" Someone wondered, "in fact, he has long been in power and haggled with them?" "Don''t you understand that?" A man leaned on the stage and said in a low voice, "people who compete for victory like to show off in front of losers with a high attitude." "..." when they heard this, they thought it was very reasonable. This is human nature! Huo Lianchen entered Mrs. Huo''s room. Mrs. Huo stood in front of the window without turning on the light. Only the light from the outside came in, reflecting the bleakness and desolation of the house. Mrs. Huo thought she was from the sanatorium, but when she felt the breath gradually spreading out in the air, she turned slowly "Why are you?" Mrs. Huo pricked all over. "What are you doing here?" "I''ll come and see if you''re good!" While Huo Lianchen spoke faintly, he walked to one side of the sofa and sat down. His posture showed languid indifference and looked at Mrs. Huo contemptuously. Mrs. Huo''s breath began to be unstable because she was angry. She only heard her scream: "go away... You go away!" "Get out?" Huo Lianchen sniffed, "don''t say here first. I''ll come and go if I want... Even if you put aside these, what right do you have to say this word with me now?" Mrs. Huo was already furious. Her face began to look bad. Looking at Huo Lianchen was like looking at her enemy. "I came here today to see if you are good..." Huo Lianchen paused in his voice, and then one side of his mouth was filled with a treacherous smile. "In addition, I tell you that thanks to you, Huo Qishen... Is paralyzed!" In a word, Mrs. Huo suddenly widened her eyes, "impossible!" "Because of gravity compression, the spinal nerve is damaged. After the operation... It cannot be improved." Huo Lianchen''s voice was always calm, as if he said something about cats and dogs. "What welcomes his life is his later life, which is spent in the hospital bed." "Shut up -" Mrs. Huo gasped for anger, and her chest rose and fell. "Xiao Shen fought so many times from small to large. There''s never anything. Who do you want to cheat? He called me back this morning..." "Human life is fragile, isn''t it?" Huo Lianchen sneered, "maybe at the last moment, you still meet each other, and at the next moment, people have been separated from you forever..." Mrs. Huo listened to Huo Lianchen''s words, and her body trembled more and more uncontrollably. Because this sentence was originally said by her and Huo Lianchen''s mother. A few days later, Huo Lianchen''s mother was killed by a car! Thinking of this, Mrs. Huo kept trembling. She looked at Huo Lianchen''s eyes and gradually filled with fear under fear. "You, what did you do to Xiaoshen?" Mrs. Huo suddenly became sharp, "is it you who caused Xiaoshen''s situation... Huo Lianchen, if Xiaoshen has anything in case, I will not let you go..." Chapter 1714 "Won''t you let me go?" Huo Lianchen smiled, laughing coldly and sarcastically, "why don''t you let me go now?" Mrs. Huo''s breath became more and more chaotic. She saw that Huo Lianchen slowly got up and came towards her. At the same time, she subconsciously feared this man who seemed to come out of the region and retreated. "What are you so afraid of?" Huo Lianchen sneered, "or, what are you worried about?" "You, what are you doing?" Under the strong indifference of Huo Lianchen, Mrs. Huo''s heart trembled constantly, which made her breathing become tangled. "What am I going to do?" Huo Lianchen''s voice became colder and colder, "or what have you done?" He looked at Mrs. Huo''s frightened face. His eyes were in the dark and seemed to devour people. "You were afraid. You caused Huo Qishen''s problem... Or," he said slowly when Mrs. Huo was under greater pressure. "You thought of what you had done before and thought it was karma." "Ah --" Mrs. Huo was finally out of control by Huo Lianchen''s words. She covered her ears and hid next to the curtain. She looked at Huo Lianchen in horror. Her face was particularly pale in the light reflected from the outside. Huo Lianchen looked at her with a sneer, looked at her indifferently, and said slowly, "Huo Qishen, I didn''t move, because I don''t need to move... That''s what you caused." He hissed coldly, as if looking at Mrs. Huo more, and felt that his eyes were dirty. Huo Lianchen turned around when Mrs. Huo was about to collapse. When he was about to walk to the door, he seemed to suddenly think of something Looking sideways, he looked at Mrs. Huo and smiled, "Oh, I forgot to tell you that Huo Qishen likes a woman recently. She looks good and has a good character... I just saw her that day. I think it''s time for me to find a woman." Mrs. Huo seemed to be stimulated again. When she was about to roar, Huo Lianchen already opened the door and went out. Just listen to the roaring voice inside the room, "Huo Lianchen, you won''t succeed. You can''t take all Xiaoshen''s things... Impossible!" Huo Lianchen didn''t move, but looked slightly at the door closed by himself, and a cold hiss of sympathy crossed the bottom of his eyes. Wei''an''s back is fading away in the corridor The staff of the sanatorium seem to have been used to it for a long time. Every time Huo Lianchen comes, she will make Mrs. Huo sharp. In addition to sighing, we can''t help sighing. In addition to the brilliance on the surface and the warmth in the dark, the life of a rich family is the same as the cold winter and the December moon. ¡­¡­ Time, with the pace of preparing for the wedding, gradually passed. Twenty four hours a day, for busy people, it seems that time is always insufficient, hoping to break it in half. Because Huaye personally planned, the private TV station of emperor group will exclusively interview and broadcast the wedding of Li Yunze and he Yining. For those who have not seen the wedding of a rich family, they are looking forward to it. "Tut Tut," Yan Miao looked at he Yining who had changed his clothes and shook his head and sighed, "Yining, I don''t know whether it''s my mother''s dexterity or whether you can hold such a Chinese dress... Really, it''s not just beautiful, it''s completely quiet in the atmosphere. Wait," she stopped when he Yining wanted to talk, "Don''t open your mouth... As soon as you open your mouth, it will be destroyed!" "..." why Ning stared and then turned around in front of the mirror with joy, "I like it so much! I told my aunt this wish in high school. I didn''t expect that she would prepare this for me after she hasn''t embroidered for so many years..." Yan Miao said with a smile, "for the sake of my mother''s eye consumption, I have to embroider your hand. Why should I rather? If you and Li Yunze dare not be happy, I''m sorry for my mother!" "Must be happy!" He Yining looked at himself in the mirror. Against the background of Chinese red dress, his face was like a peach blossom, and the whole person seemed to be filled with a little girl''s shame. Yan''s mother''s manual work is very good. The auspicious cloud pattern embroidered by her hand is mainly gold, which represents wealth and auspiciousness in ancient times. Zhenghong is the most festive wedding dress color in ancient times. The dress is designed with the waist closed, narrow body and folded sleeves in the style of the upper body, and the buckle is also made by hand. The back of the coat is embroidered with a small shoulder of monochrome rich and noble peony. The following is the A-shaped pleated skirt. The jade belt tassel in front seems to lengthen the whole person''s body and become tall and charming "Go and see your man''s..." Yan Miao said, and wanted to pull he Yining. He Yining suddenly stopped, "I want to change it first!" "Why?" Yan Miao was puzzled. He Yining glanced at the bottom of his eyes and said, "of course, I''ll show him on the wedding day." When yanmiao heard this, the two women immediately looked at each other and smiled. After looking at Yunze''s dress, he went out. Hearing that they came out of the dressing room, they looked sideways... Seeing that he Yining was still home clothes, they frowned slightly. "Is it inappropriate?" "Fit!" He Yining said, already smiling and began to look at Li Yunze. The same red dress is embroidered with auspicious cloud pattern. Although the style will not be as diversified as women''s clothing, it is still fine and impressive. Li Yunze was originally a little evil. At the moment, under the Chinese dress, he became a little like the kings and grandchildren in ancient times. He was full of noble spirit and elegant at the same time. "Does it look good?" Seeing that he Yining''s eyes were glowing, Li Yunze asked with a smile. "Well, good-looking!" He Yining has been obsessed with. Li Yunze looked satisfied. "Is it me or the dress?" "The dress looks good, but..." why Ning grinned, "you look better!" Just when Li Yunze''s face was satisfied, yanmiao couldn''t stand turning his eyes, "I''m fed with dog food. I''m a little fed up. Can you worry about my feelings?" "What concerns?" Li Yunze raised his eyebrows. "I heard that these days, someone sends flowers to the hospital as soon as you go to work every day?" Speaking of this, yanmiao felt that he was going crazy. She really doesn''t know what Huo Lianchen wants to do? From that day on, there were flowers and even "care" calls every day. She was so angry that she directly set Huo Lianchen''s number into a blacklist, but he changed his phone number. The most important thing is that I change every time. I don''t know which one is her Someone said, "I like to set up a blacklist to continue. I can even call you ten different numbers a day... No more, I can ''borrow'' the numbers of people around you!" Half threatening words make yanmiao powerless. "Yan Yan," he Yining suddenly remembered something, "does Huoqi know that Huo Lianchen is chasing you?" Chapter 1715 Yan Miao pondered slightly and laughed at himself with some uncertainty, "don''t you know?!" "Should I?" Li Yunze took off his dress and came out. "Huo Lianchen is so big. Although people in the hospital may not know it''s him, someone is after you. Should Huo Qishen always know it?" Yan Miao shrugged and took a deep breath, "who knows!" Li Yunze and he Yining looked at each other. After exchanging eyes, they didn''t continue the topic. The three had dinner at home. Yanmiao had to be on duty at night. After dinner, she left. "Li Yunze," he Yining gently rubbed his lower abdomen and looked at Li Yunze who was washing the dishes. "Do you say Huoqi knows?" "I guess I know someone is chasing yanmiao, but I don''t know it''s Huo Lianchen." Li Yunze looked back at he Yining. When he took back his sight, he continued, "he looked at the ruffian. He should not be so cynical on the surface..." "What do you say?" He Yining suddenly became interested. "Yes, I think I can''t give yanmiao happiness. I heard that someone is chasing him. No matter whether he doesn''t care, he shouldn''t bother yanmiao..." Li Yunze said faintly. "What about Qin sang?" Why Ning suddenly disagreed, "if so, I almost collapsed when I went to the photography exhibition last time?" "Yes, Yunze nodded his head after he picked the bowl!" Why Ning sighed and said to himself, "I think it''s necessary for Huo Qi to know that it''s Huo Lianchen who is chasing the scorching heat these days!" "No!" Li Yunze dried the bowl and put it into the disinfection cabinet. He Yining wrung his eyebrows and looked at Li Yunze puzzled. Li Yunze just gave he Yining a soothing smile, and then changed the topic. In fact, sometimes things have two sides. And these two sides can also see the real reason why a person does something. ¡­¡­ Yanmiao had just returned to the hospital when he received a call from Qin sang. Recently, she has a headache. There were no peach blossoms before, but now it blooms twice as soon as it blooms! Whether Qin sang or Huo Lianchen, yanmiao refused. Unfortunately, the two men seem to ignore her and continue their strong offensive Huo Lianchen didn''t know whether to take the form or not. Anyway, there were many flowers every day, which made the little nurses envious and divided the bouquet. Qin Sangna is more distracted. He can play the romance of the artist with his little love words of concern and occasional work sharing. Unfortunately, no matter how good they are, if they are not the one she wants, they can''t really feel anything? "Doctor Yan, come so early?" A nurse looked at the time. "I went to Yining to have dinner, but I didn''t bother to go back. I went to the street to buy something and came over." Yan Miao said. He kept going to the office, wore a white coat, took the stethoscope and other things to take with him, and came out again. "Is there anything special today?" Yanmiao took the medical record book and looked at it. "Two people were discharged during the day. There are no new ones today. Everything is very stable..." the nurse smiled and said, "I should be able to have a good sleep tonight." Yan Miao smiled and nodded. For them, nature is the best without special circumstances. Not only can you sleep, but also there are not so many joys and sorrows. "Yiyi!" Suddenly, the nurse whispered a prompt sound. When yanmiao looked at her, she gave a sign in her eyes. Yanmiao looked sideways and saw Huo Qishen sitting in a wheelchair and looking at him. He is still recovering after the operation. He can''t move freely now. Standing for a long time will cause a load on his body. Yanmiao put down the medical record book and walked over. "Don''t you rest so late?" "Asked the nurse and said you couldn''t sleep tonight, so you came over..." Huo Qishen said with a smile. "I came here more than an hour in advance today. Is that too right for you?" Yanmiao sneered coldly. He seemed not to care about Huo Qishen''s paralysis. She always wanted to slap him. Huo Qishen grinned. "See through, don''t tell..." paused. "Anyway, there''s still an hour to shift. Go and have a drink with me?" As if joking and asking, yanmiao wanted to refuse, but finally agreed. They went to the leisure hall set up in the hospital. Huo Qishen can''t drink a cup of boiled water now. "Come on, why are you looking for me?" Yanmiao came straight to the point and gently stirred the coffee with a coffee spoon in his hand. Huo Qishen looked at yanmiao quietly for a while and then asked, "I heard that someone has been chasing you crazy in recent days?" "Why, I can''t be chased?" Yanmiao rolled his eyes. Huo Qi stared at yanmiao deeply. "It''s not Qin sang, is it?" Yan Miao looked at Huo Qishen and got angry inexplicably. "Huo Qishen, what do you want to ask, can you be more direct?" She sneered, "it''s not like you to beat around the Bush!" Huo Qishen didn''t get angry because of yanmiao''s sarcasm, or even a rare calm. "Yanmiao, I don''t want to hurt you..." Huo Qishen said quietly, "I don''t want you to be hurt because of me!" Yanmiao didn''t speak, just picked up the coffee and drank. "Do you know what I mean?" Huo Qi was deeply angry when he saw that yanmiao was unmoved. Yanmiao put down his coffee, looked at him, looked at him and asked, "Huo Qishen, why do you think I will be hurt because of you? Some things are good for people to be confident, but it''s good to be overconfident!" "I don''t know others, but if Huo Lianchen chases you, it''s definitely not because he likes you, it''s definitely because of me!" Huoqi clenched his teeth. Yan Miao smiled and smiled coldly, "Oh..." she gave a slight meal and asked, "why did Huo Lianchen chase me because of you?" "Because..." Huo Qishen gritted his teeth and didn''t continue to say. Yan Miao waited for Huo Qishen to say. Unfortunately, he didn''t say. "Huo Qishen, you coward!" Yanmiao was angry in the end. She even ignored Huo Qishen''s mood. Huo Qishen laughed at himself, and his voice seemed to whisper faintly, "yes, I''m a coward!" Yanmiao sneered and didn''t answer. Huoqi lowered his eyes slightly, lifted his eyes after mocking himself at the bottom of his eyes, and seriously said, "yanmiao, don''t promise Huo Lianchen..." after a pause, he bit his teeth, "if you have to choose one, I''d rather you choose Qin sang now." Yanmiao''s heart seemed to be suddenly stabbed. The pain made her want to give Huoqi a deep slap, so that she could feel comfortable. "Huo family, I''ve stayed enough myself..." Huo Qishen said. Suddenly, yanmiao''s heart suddenly changed from dull pain to panic. She looked at Huo Qishen and seemed to understand the reason for his "cowardice" all at once. "Don''t promise Huo Lianchen," Huo Qishen paused before slowly opening his mouth, "I will quit your world, too." Chapter 1716 With desolate words, people can''t help but feel astringent. Huo Qi deeply coagulated yanmiao, didn''t say anything, and drove the wheelchair away He is not brave enough, but sometimes he can''t be brave. No matter whether mom is wrong or crazy in other people''s eyes... But in the end, it''s his mother! He can''t lose his mother when she loses her father. Therefore, he is "fighting" for her. But he didn''t want to argue at all. He had his own dream and what he wanted to do But not anymore! Originally, she disliked Fang Xiran. He chased very well. But unfortunately, some things he will be greedy and want Sometimes he thought, don''t care about anything, just indulge yourself! For example, borrow wine and want yanmiao to do something... Although he knows how dreary and irresponsible his behavior is. When he knew that a Qin sang appeared around yanmiao, he knew he was a little worried. It was the kind of feeling that could be clouded. He was torn by his hand, so that he could only face it. He was impulsive when he went to the photography exhibition that day. He really wanted to leave with yanmiao regardless of anything, but when he saw her, he hesitated again. Stand at the door and wait. He knew it would be bad for him at that time, but he waited. Sure enough, the next day was a tragedy. However, he is capricious, but he still can''t break through the pass in his heart Just because if he is really with yanmiao, she will be the one who gets hurt. Since he knew she would get hurt, would he still be with her? The answer is obvious, no! He likes her, or in other words, he falls in love with this calm, smart... Occasionally cute woman. But he can''t afford it. Because my mother won''t accept yanmiao. For love can be crazy, but for the son of man, he can''t ignore his mother''s life and death, can he?! A touch of desolation crossed the corner of his mouth again. Huo Qishen drove his wheelchair and had gone out of the door of the leisure hall. Yanmiao didn''t move there, but quietly watched Huo Qishen leave until his figure disappeared from his eyes. Her character is a flood of maternal love. And just Huo Qishen''s words, she immediately understood what, and when she saw his sad voice leave, what kind of thing wanted to break out of her heart, which made her want to do something uncontrollably?! Yan Miao got up and chased him. Huo Qishen is still waiting for the elevator. It''s very quiet. It''s never been quiet before. Quiet, different from Huo Qishen yanmiao used to know. With a ''ding'', the elevator arrived. When the elevator door opened, Huo Qishen controlled the wheelchair to enter Yanmiao chased after him, but didn''t stop the elevator door that was about to close. He just looked at Huo Qishen and said with a slightly stunned look: "Huo Qishen, if it''s all hurt, you can do it!" The "bang" sounded softly. When yanmiao''s words fell, the elevator door closed, blocking their sight. Huo Qishen forgot his reaction, but his eyes were more and more stunned by yanmiao''s words. What did yanmiao just say? Huo Qishen hurriedly wanted to stop the elevator, but when he wanted to press his hand, he froze again. His breathing was slightly short, and the expression on his face was ever-changing. He quickly took out his mobile phone and dialed yanmiao''s number. At the moment of connection, he held his breath and asked, "yanmiao, what did you just mean?" Yan Miao smiled, "Huo Qishen, if I understand correctly, you actually like me, but for some reason, you can''t be with me... Because, after being with me, I may... No, I will definitely get hurt, right?" Huo Qi frowned deeply while the elevator arrived, but he didn''t go out and let the elevator open and close. "Huo Qishen, how do you know the final result if you don''t try?" Yan Miao asked, "I want to try. I''m not afraid of getting hurt... I''m a doctor and I can cure myself... So can you stop worrying so much?" "Yanmiao, do you know that this injury has nothing to do with being a doctor?" Huo Qishen seemed a little angry, "even if you get hurt in the end, there is no result. Do you have to bear the harm from me?" If the last dilemma, he will make what choice, he does not know now. But he was afraid that the last choice made yanmiao suffer double harm "Huo Qishen, I like your people. It has nothing to do with your home." Yan Miao is smart. She seems to have guessed something, "if she still can''t be recognized in the end..." She didn''t go on. Originally, she wanted to say that if she couldn''t be recognized, it would be an experience in her life. It can be found that when everything is said, she doesn''t want to be an experience. "Huo Qishen, if you can''t be recognized, I''ll take you elope!" Yan Miao joked, "we can always find a solution." After a pause, she asked, "I just want to know, would you like to try? Because as a result, not only will I get hurt, but also you!" This is a painful decision for both of them, but at this moment, yanmiao doesn''t want to leave regrets for life. Qin sang is very good, but it''s too good for her. Whether Huo Lianchen is true or false, such a cold and domineering person, she and he will only respect each other because they can''t communicate in the end. She needs a man like Huo Qishen, who can make her angry or helpless... And who can make her love more. So she wanted to try, even if it was painful. Yining can love Li Yunze for 20 years without flinching back. Zihan can fight with PEI Shengyao without asking the result... Will she stop because of pain?! no No! Not in line with her character. The elevator came up again. The moment the elevator door opened, Huo Qishen inside and yanmiao outside both held their mobile phones and looked at each other. Yan Miao smiled. Huo Qishen also smiled "Huo Qishen, your answer!" Yanmiao puts down his cell phone. Huoqi raised his eyebrows. "I''m waiting for you to elope with me!" The two people who have made the worst-case plan clearly know what they will face at this moment. But if one person hasn''t been crazy for another, isn''t such a life... Boring? Two people in love, as long as they are brave and crazy, can always bring a little surprise to life. And what if you don''t want to love two people? Together or not together, it seems to be a kind of light sadness. By the Los Angeles River, there are not many people here before midnight in late summer. "Xiaonian," Qiao Jinnian asked, looking at Zhang Nian sitting on the bench beside the river in Los Angeles, "will you promise my pursuit today?" Chapter 1717 Zhang Nian looked at Qiao Jinnian and didn''t answer immediately. After her mother left, she didn''t come back to Los Angeles. She took a bus directly from Yuncheng and started a personal trip She has been to the plateau, to the deep mountains, through the beautiful rape fields, and also in the hanging foot building, leaning against the window, listening to the gurgling water, enjoying the early morning fog and the song of swallows in the mountains and forests. For a few months, she made money while traveling When a teacher resigned, she said: the world is so big, she wants to see it! Zhang Nian envies that kind of "willfulness". Finally, when he can do so, he knows that the original life is full of unknown expectations. However, the teacher found his other half during the journey. One person''s journey has become a road for two people. And she Zhang Nian suddenly smiled, which was different from the shyness and bitterness of love when she liked Chu Zixiao before. It is also different from the helplessness and gratitude in the face of Qiao Jinnian''s help before. What''s more, family is different from... The sadness when my father and mother left one after another in the face of Zhangjia mutation. Now Zhang Nian has found his position again during the journey and knows more about what he wants? Life, perhaps after losing everything, can not turn back. "Senior, you want to be with me..." Zhang Nian asked, "can you tell me what I look like in your impression?" Qiao Jinnian smiled, "quiet but flexible, generous but reserved, filial piety, tenacity... Clean." Listening to Qiao Jinnian praising himself, Zhang Nian laughed. No one doesn''t like being praised, but when you praise a little too much, you will feel a little untrue. "Senior, in your eyes... Is there nothing wrong with me?" Zhang Nian asked calmly. Qiao Jinnian was stunned and then said, "beauty is in the eye of the beholder... I''ve tolerated your bad, haven''t you?" His eyes were burning. "Besides, what makes me feel bad about a girl like you?" "What if I tell you I''m not as clean as you see?" Zhang Nian ignored Qiao Jinnian''s slight frown and just looked back at the front, "senior, I''m not a place... I''m not as good as you think." "Xiaonian..." Qiao Jinnian frowned deeply when Zhang Nian said he was not in the right place. He didn''t like her saying that about himself. "I didn''t lie to you." Zhang Nian looked sideways at Qiao Jinnian. "I''m not as good as you think. Although I''m not wandering, don''t you mind if I''m gone for the first time?" "I don''t mind!" Qiao Jinnian hurriedly said with some rough breath. Zhang Nian smiled faintly, "no, you care!" "I don''t care!" Qiao Jinnian''s voice was hurried without any consideration, as if he was afraid that if he thought about it, there would be different answers. "But I care!" Zhang Nian smiled calmly. "Senior, my heart has been given to Chu Zixiao, and my body has been given to him... However, I can''t be with him because of Zhangjia." Qiao Jinnian''s breath began to become rapid, and there was an unspeakable feeling in his heart, which gradually spread. "Senior, are you sure you want such a woman whose body and mind don''t belong to you?" Zhang Nian asked. "I want it!" Qiao Jinnian said hurriedly. However, when he said this, there was an unspeakable emotion flowing in the bottom of his eyes. Even though he was trying to bear it and suppress it, it still leaked out. "Senior, why deceive yourself and others?" Zhang Nian mercilessly exposed Qiao Jinnian''s innermost feelings, "you are clean, so ask your other half. Similarly, this is no problem... The problem is that I knew Chu Zixiao earlier than you, and I couldn''t help having a relationship with him... Although that night was unexpected, I felt very happy. Because it was the best night in my life." Finally, Zhang Nian was able to face the events of that night. Even now, Zhang Nian became very calm. Whether it''s talking about Chu Zixiao, or thinking of her parents'' departure, or Zhang''s depression... She can treat it with an ordinary heart. "Everyone has their own life. Naturally, parents want their children to have another half, so they won''t be alone. So... On their deathbed, they want to entrust me to you." Zhang Nian said calmly, "you are a good man, but sometimes, if you are not good... You can be together." Qiao Jinnian''s heart seemed to be torn open by Zhang Nian''s calm. What did he want to say, but he found himself unable to say?! "The life of two people is not bad, but the life of one person may not be bad..." Zhang Nian smiled and smiled quietly. "Whether it''s Chu Zixiao or you, I don''t want it. Because there are things between him or you and me that can''t be melted and ignored." Zhang Nian looked back at Qiao Jinnian and said, "I''m fine now... I want to live a free life for the time being. I don''t need to consider other people''s ideas, as long as I''m happy." Her eyes gradually became far-reaching, with a trace of mystery, "maybe I can meet my final him in the future, maybe I''ll be such a person all my life... In fact, no matter what, how can I know the joy of fish?" "Xiao Nian..." "Senior student!" Zhang Nian interrupted what Qiao Jinnian was going to say and smiled at him, "today I promised you to go out for dinner and even come here for a walk... I know you will definitely mention things together again, so I came here. I came because I want to tell you, let''s do it... If a friend can do it, I can''t, I will treat it as if I don''t know him in the future." "No!" Qiao Jinnian was in a hurry, "Xiaonian, I really don''t care about your first time. You can''t veto and my future because of the past..." "Then treat me as selfish!" Zhang Nian obviously said without any room for maneuver, "I''ll make it clear to you today. We... Can''t!" Then she looked deeply at Qiao Jinnian and got up. Without saying anything more, I turned and went up from one side of the steps "Xiao Nian..." Qiao Jinnian''s voice came from behind, but Zhang Nian didn''t stop. Today, Qiao Jinnian may need to consider and digest. However, she is not in this matter. For a clean person, even if he can forgive, it will become a wound in their later life. She doesn''t want each other to become sharp because of this matter, so she''s not afraid of what Qiao Jinnian thinks of her. She told her what happened that night tonight However, she didn''t say it was because of her father''s design, but made him think she climbed up Chu Zixiao''s bed! Suddenly, Zhang Nian stopped The sight fell on the person who had just stopped in the roadside car. For a time, he forgot his reaction. Chapter 1718 Chu Zixiao still held the door in his hand. He was about to close the door. At the moment he saw Zhang Nian, he froze in the distance. He just came out of a client''s house and passed by the river of Los Angeles. He wanted to go down and blow the wind Unexpectedly, just stopped the car and got off, I saw Zhang Nian. Zhang Nian didn''t expect to meet Chu Zixiao here at this time. He forgot his reaction for a while. "When did you come back?" Chu Zixiao opened his mouth first and broke the silence. "I came back a few days ago." Zhang Nianzhe said, "well... Why are you here so late?" "Passing by, I''m too busy recently, so I want to come and walk." Chu Zixiao said. Suddenly, he heard a voice coming from Zhang Nianlai''s ladder. Looking at it, he just saw Qiao Jinnian''s face gradually exposed. When Qiao Jinnian saw Chu Zixiao, he was stunned. He looked at him and Zhang Nian. At the thought that Zhang Nian had just told him that he had given Chu Zixiao for the first time, an indescribable emotion lingered in his heart. Chu Zixiao didn''t know what happened to Zhang Nian and Qiao Jinnian. He just thought they had lost their temper, so he came up one after another Just when I wanted to say something, I heard Zhang Nian say, "then I''ll go and sit with you?" Chu Zixiao frowned with a slight invisible eyebrow. While his eyes inadvertently crossed Qiao Jinnian, he immediately understood Zhang Nian''s words. He didn''t ask anything, just nodded slightly, went to the co pilot, opened the door and motioned Zhang Nian to get on the bus. "Xiao Nian!" Qiao Jinnian shook his hand. Zhang Nian glanced at Qiao Jinnian. He wanted to say something, but finally thought about it, he got on the bus without saying anything. Chu Zixiao closed the door, turned around and got into the driver''s seat. Just before getting on the bus, he looked at Qiao Jinnian as if he had nothing The car drove away in front of Qiao Jinnian. Qiao Jinnian gradually clenched his hand and made a "quack" sound in the middle of the night. "Sorry, I just used you." Zhang Nian said. Chu Zixiao looked at her and smiled, "I know you use me." Zhang Nian scratched a touch of astringency at the corner of his mouth. "What''s the matter?" Chu Zixiao looked at Qiao Jinnian from the reversing mirror and asked, "have you quarreled?" "Some things have been entangled for a long time, harming others and myself. I just made it clear to him." Zhang Nian said, afraid of Chu Zixiao thinking more, and said, "I just don''t want to make do with it." "Well, I understand. I won''t think much." Chu Zixiao''s voice was faint, "shall I take you back?" "Don''t you want to sit down easily?" Zhang Nian asked. "Are you willing to accompany?" Chu Zixiao asked. Zhang Nian smiled, "I just used you as a repayment..." "Yes." Chu Zixiao answered faintly and said nothing more. He just turned the car and drove to a very quiet leisure club. He knew that his relationship with Zhang Nian would end there. That''s good, at least not the enemy Once in a while, we can say hello to each other! ¡­¡­ The next day, Yan Miao just finished his shift and was ready to leave. A nurse came with a bunch of champagne roses in her hand. "Doctor Yan, your flowers are here again!" Yan Miao looked at the big bunch of flowers and helplessly helped his forehead, "solve it yourself!" The nurse had guessed the result, smiled and rubbed up to yanmiao, "I heard... Have you determined the relationship with Huo Ershao?" "Heard?" Yanmiao rolled his eyes. The nurse ''hey hey'' smiled and leaned over slightly, "well, someone said that the doctor was domineering and leaked, so he wanted to take Huo Ershao... Elope!" Yanmiao is not surprised to know that he was heard on the phone yesterday. Although there were few people in the leisure hall at that time, it doesn''t mean there was no one She was too anxious to think about what? I felt that if she didn''t work hard, she and Huo Qishen would really have no chance. "Doctor Yan, wait to eat the happy candy from you and Huo Ershao!" The nurse said vaguely and left with the bouquet in her arms. Yanmiao raised her eyebrows and shrugged her shoulders. Looking at the back of the nurse leaving, she smiled and felt that imagination was always beautiful... It''s good to be able to eat happy candy. I''m afraid there''s no happy candy in the end. However, things will be troublesome in the future. Now... She''s going to see Huo Er. When yanmiao talent arrived at the VIP floor, he felt a tense atmosphere. "What''s the matter?" Yan Miao asked the nurse. The nurse looked at Huo Qishen''s ward direction, "Huo shaolai." Yanmiao frowned and went to Huo Qishen''s ward without asking any more questions The door of the ward was not closed tightly, and I don''t know whether it was intentional or not. There was no sound inside, but there was a dignified confrontation in the air. Yanmiao just wanted to push the door in, but he thought it was not good to be so abrupt. After all, the relationship with Huo Qishen was just confirmed last night, and Huo Lianchen seems to be chasing her with high enthusiasm. "Are you sure you can be with yanmiao?" After a while, a cold voice came from inside. "I can''t," Huoqi hissed coldly. "Can you?" Huo Lianchen chuckled. The smile just stayed at the corner of his mouth, obviously filled with contempt under ridicule, "at least, I''m with her without pressure... Isn''t it?" He looked at Huoqi shendun''s changed face and sneered, "what about you?" "That''s my business with yanmiao. What''s it to do with you?" Huo Qishen clenched his teeth and squeezed out the gap between his teeth word by word. "I''m chasing her. How can it have nothing to do with me?" Huo Lianchen sneered, glanced at Huo Qishen and said, "I want to see how you can make her happy? How can you pass your mother''s pass..." he paused slightly, and he continued, "Oh, by the way... I went to the sanatorium before I came." "Huo Lianchen, what do you want?" Huo Qishen gnashed his teeth and roared. "What do I want to do?" Huo Lianchen sneered, "of course I don''t want you to be with yanmiao." "Er..." Huo Qishen uttered a low roar, which seemed like a trapped animal. Huo Lianchen looked at Huo Qishen and felt a deep emotion at the bottom of his eyes, but soon disappeared. The door of the ward was suddenly pushed open. Huo Qishen and Huo Lianchen looked at it reflexively and saw that it was yanmiao. One was surprised and the other frowned slightly. Yanmiao looked at Huo Lianchen indifferently, and didn''t hide his dislike. She went to Huo Qishen and said in a cold voice, "what''s the use of doing so much?" She looked at Huo Qishen''s body roughly, then looked at Huo Lianchen and said, "if you argue with Huo Qishen, it also depends on who I am willing to fight with in the end... Isn''t it?" Huo Qishen grasped yanmiao''s hand. Such subtle movements were full of possessiveness. Yan Miao liked Huo Qishen''s possessive desire for her. She smiled comfortingly at him and said slowly to Huo Lianchen: "even if his mother opposed us being together, I wouldn''t leave him!" "Really?" Two words, not Huo Lianchen said. The three men looked at the door of the ward at the same time, and saw a lady whose face was still pale under her makeup, but she was elegantly dressed standing there, looking at yanmiao with disgust. Chapter 1719 "Mom?!" Huo Qishen shouted in amazement and asked subconsciously, "how did you come here?" Although yanmiao subconsciously thought of something when she saw the lady, she was still surprised when Huo Qishen was stunned. Huo Qishen looked angrily at Huo Lianchen, and saw a shallow and almost invisible smile across the corner of Huo Lianchen''s mouth. However, Huo Qishen still saw His eyes were completely angry and gnashing his teeth. If he wasn''t inconvenient at the moment, he might have rushed over. At that time, Huo Lianchen said that he went to the sanatorium before coming i see! ha-ha! Everything he did in the hospital was under the control of Huo Lianchen, so yanmiao was with him last night. This morning, Huo Lianchen came... Even brought his mother! Mrs. Huo was still standing at the door because she didn''t come in and formed a dead corner with Huo Lianchen... She couldn''t see him. If her eyes are not looking at yanmiao all the time, I''m afraid she will find something from her son''s eyes that suddenly deviate past?! Mrs. Huo looked at yanmiao up and down. At a glance, she saw that none of yanmiao''s clothes were up to grade, so don''t say anything about luxury goods. Such a woman will not be a big family at first sight. Mrs. Huo, under the concept of family status, was immediately filled with disgust. She was even unwilling to step into the ward. The medical staff in the VIP ward looked at each other and wanted to stop it, but they found that such a thing seemed like a family affair, and they couldn''t stop it. After all, the rich man is the uncle! What strange family or temper? Yanmiao''s hand was deeply held by Huo Qi, although he knew that his behavior at the moment would make his mother more sharp. But he had no choice! Last night, when he was willing to face it with yanmiao, he knew what was coming At this moment, whether it''s his mother or Huo Lianchen, he wants to tell them that yanmiao''s woman is his, and he wants this woman! Huo Lianchen looked at Huo Qishen holding yanmiao''s hand. His face was a little cold, and the corners of his mouth were really sneering. Yan Miao glanced at him and became more and more reluctant to like this man. Just after a moment of surprise because of Mrs. Huo, she remembered what she had just heard outside... It is clear that Mrs. Huo will come because of Mr. Huo Lianchen. They haven''t had time to be happy yet. No wonder this man doesn''t like Huo Qishen. He glared fiercely, and yanmiao took back his sight and looked at Mrs. Huo "I won''t allow you to be with my son." "My son has been hospitalized for so many days. Now I want to come and have a look?" Mrs. Huo and yanmiao''s words were almost exported at the same time. They fell behind, and both of them frowned slightly. "What is it you dare to question me like this?" Mrs. Huo asked as if she were not happy. Yanmiao is not afraid. She has no great talent, but she is an unpopular master. "I''m Huo Qishen''s girlfriend. Why do you say I am?" Yan Miao''s voice sounded very calm. "You gave birth to him, and I will accompany him all my life... At present, you and I are very important women in his life!" The nurses secretly watching outside praised yanmiao one by one. This momentum "You and my son are not together for money. How much do you want? You can count..." Mrs. Huo looked at yanmiao contemptuously and asked, "I''ll give it to you!" Yanmiao never knew that such a bloody bridge would happen to him. She sneered, held Huo Qishen in her backhand and stopped what he wanted to say. It''s natural for mother-in-law and daughter-in-law to get along well, but if not, the villain is her anyway, so don''t let Huo Qishen do it. "How much do you think I''ll need to leave your son?" Yan Miao asked, "Mrs. Huo, you came to stop me from being with your son? But didn''t you come to see your injured son?" When yanmiao said this, he thought that after the operation that day, no Huo family came. The desolation outside Huo Qishen''s ward became more and more angry. "Do you know that your son was hurt because of you?" "Do you know that your son almost became paralyzed due to spinal nerve compression?" "He is still so young, because you... Can''t do what you want to do, and because of you, when he is injured, he can only smile alone and don''t want others to see his sorrow?" "Shut up!" Mrs. Huo walked in with the same tone as yanmiao''s machine gun for a while, and came forward to fight yanmiao. "Mom!" Huo Qi was deeply shocked and wanted to stop the moment when Mrs. Huo raised her hand, but her body couldn''t move at all. Originally, everyone thought that Mrs. Huo''s sudden slap would fall on yanmiao''s face. But, no! Yanmiao stepped aside. She''s not so stupid. After the dog blood gave the money to the bridge, she was slapped Mrs. Huo obviously didn''t expect that yanmiao would escape. She was stunned in situ for a moment. "Mrs. Huo, I don''t know what your son looks like in your eyes..." yanmiao still holds hands with Huoqi deeply, even if they feel numb because of their efforts, "but in my eyes, he is my husband after yanmiao and the father of the future child. He wants to be together all his life... Even if you are his mother, you can''t insult him." Then she and Huo Qishen looked at each other and saw the smile at the bottom of his eyes, as if they were greatly encouraged. In fact, what she was most afraid of at the moment was not Mrs. Huo, but that Huo Qishen would let go of his hand because of Mrs. Huo. But he didn''t! He held her tightly, as if afraid that she would not be firm with him because of her mother''s insult. They are afraid of each other not firm, but at this moment, they are very firm. That''s nice "Your husband, the mother of your future child... Ha ha!" Mrs. Huo sneered and looked at Huo Qishen who had not spoken. "Do you agree with what this woman said? Do you want this woman instead of me?" "Mom, I won''t want you!" Huo Qishen''s voice was very calm. Just when Mrs. Huo wanted to look at yanmiao proudly, he continued, "but I will also want yanmiao... In fact, there is no conflict, isn''t it?" "I won''t agree -" Mrs. Huo was sharp at once. When the tense and treacherous atmosphere filled the ward, suddenly a faint voice came "Yan Miao," said Huo Lianchen in a faint voice, "I''ve been chasing you for so many days, and I think I can spoil you all my life... Are you really willing to suffer around Huo Qishen or be happy around me?" Chapter 1720 Mrs. Huo heard the sound now and found that there was another person in the ward She looked sideways and saw that it was Huo Lianchen. She immediately widened her eyes. "Why are you here?" Mrs. Huo''s voice was sharp, which was different from the cold sneer at yanmiao. It was obvious that there was a tremor in her voice. However, no one knows whether such trembling is due to emotional excitement or fear. "I''ll chase a woman..." Huo Lianchen looked at Mrs. Huo coldly. "Do I need to report to you or do I need your consent?" The light voice showed great pressure, which made the surrounding air thin and depressed in an instant. Outside, some nurses swallowed involuntarily and looked at the people around them. They suddenly felt that Huo Dashao was domineering. "You, who are you chasing?" Mrs. Huo obviously remembered something, and her pupils widened at once. Yanmiao has a headache. She looks at Huo Lianchen coldly. She really wants something to hit him in her hand. Huo Lianchen didn''t seem to see yanmiao''s warning and full of, but when he walked up to her, he slowly opened his mouth: "love all his life, only you are a woman all his life..." he stood two steps in front of yanmiao, "yanmiao, leave Huo Qishen, I''ll give you unparalleled love, okay?" "..." yanmiao really couldn''t stand such "affection". She rolled her eyes and wondered whether Huo Lianchen was true or false. Although, whether true or false, she doesn''t want to think deeply. But at this moment, I don''t know why, yanmiao felt Huo Lianchen''s "sincerity" after thinking about it. Will this man like her? ha-ha! Yan Miao sneered, "Huo Lianchen, don''t be so nice and affectionate... If I wasn''t with Huo Qishen, would you really be interested in me?" "How do you know I won''t?" Huo Lianchen''s eyes are as deep as a lake, which is obviously charming, but people are afraid of some resistance because they don''t know what''s inside. "Yanmiao, I always believe in love at first sight, and I believe that the identified woman is going to pursue... You are just the woman I Huo Lianchen wants to identify." Mrs. Huo was already trembling with anger because of Huo Lianchen''s words. At the thought of what Huo Lianchen often said to her, all these things she has now are stolen and robbed... He not only wants to take everything from her, but also her son''s... She feels cold at the moment. This man is not as weak and deceptive as his mother. This man''s heart is cold and his blood is cold! "Huo Lianchen, do you really think you can take anything from your side?" Huo Qishen said, as if excited, "take away my father''s love and the Huo family... Why, you are my woman now, do you want to take it too?!" He looked at Huo Lianchen angrily. He didn''t know what the so-called big brother was going to do now Whether he really wants to chase yanmiao or not, he knows very well that this is his chance. A chance for him and yanmiao to be together! "Rob?" Huo Lianchen sneered, "Huo Qishen, you really think highly of yourself..." Scornful words are full of ridicule and even indifference. Yan Miao really hated Huo Lianchen''s tone, but inexplicably, he felt something unspeakable lingering in his heart. Huo Qishen seemed to be very angry with Huo Lianchen. He said gnashing his teeth: "Huo Lianchen, yanmiao is mine... She will never be with you." "Oh... Who knows?" Huo Lianchen smiled, very light, but a little annoying, "after all, you can''t give her anything?" In a word, it completely stimulated Mrs. Huo. "Huo Lianchen, don''t think you can grab Xiaoshen''s anything..." Mrs. Huo said angrily, "this woman is Xiaoshen''s, and you''ll never take it away!" "Really?" Huo Lianchen smiled with disdain. He looked over Mrs. Huo and didn''t even say anything. However, Mrs. Huo understood the hidden meaning of his glance. "I won''t let Xiao Shen let go of this woman... You''ll never get her!" Mrs. Huo said gnashing her teeth. Huo Lianchen laughed coldly, as if to say one more word with Mrs. Huo. They all felt that they had wasted their energy. He took back his sight and looked at yanmiao. "It''s very simple," he said slightly. He looked at Huo Qishen and then took back, "when necessary, I don''t mind using strong. Think about it. Do you want to suffer with him or be by my side, and I''ll give you a lifetime of love." Then he looked back, turned and walked out Some people are born to be kings. For example, Gu Beichen is like Huo Lianchen at the moment. His words are full of overbearing. But everyone in the room knows that if he is really Yongqiang, no one can stop him "Huo Lianchen, you won''t succeed!" Huo Qishen''s voice was cold, "I have nothing to lose now. What can I force you?" He sneered, "yanmiao, I won''t let go... Never!" Huo Lianchen''s steps stopped slightly, and a deep meaning crossed his eyes. "You have robbed all the small and deep things. You can''t rob this woman!" Mrs. Huo didn''t know where to get her self-confidence, or she was just angry with what Huo Lianchen just said. Huo Lianchen didn''t speak, leaving only a sneer of ridicule. He left, but no one spoke in the ward for a long time. Huo Qishen''s eyes were a little complicated, not as sharp as when he had just sworn in sovereignty. Yan Miao also frowned and looked at the door where Huo Lianchen had disappeared. Thinking that Huo Qishen had just slightly shook her hand, he seemed to indicate something? And then Mrs. Huo seems to admit her?! "Huo Qishen, if you are robbed by Huo Lianchen..." Mrs. Huo suddenly turned around and said angrily, "I won''t recognize your son again!" Mrs. Huo said and looked coldly at yanmiao, "remember what you said today. If you dare to leave my son, I will kill you..." Yanmiao didn''t care about the bloody words. In a society ruled by law, she thought she would kill if she said so? But At this moment, she suddenly couldn''t understand Huo Lianchen. From beginning to end, the man seemed to be irritating Mrs. Huo, but in the end... It seemed as if she benefited? Well, no, it''s not her... It should be Huo Qishen. ¡­¡­ Huo Lianchen left with a indifferent step. Under the eyes of those people in the corridor, his steps were slow. Other people''s examination, as if the man would not pay attention at all, nor would he arouse any thoughts. The elevator arrived and the man went in... The elevator door closed. Everything is blocked in a small lift car. Huo Lianchen sighed slightly, and the scene suddenly crossed his mind Chapter 1721 "Since you don''t admit your mistake, you''ve been kneeling here..." Lord Huo looked at his eldest son, who straightened his back even if he was kneeling, and said angrily, "don''t eat rice!" "Good!" Huo Lianchen gave a faint sound, as if it had nothing to do with such punishment. In this way, he further angered Huo Ye. With a cold hum of anger, he turned and left. In the space, become quiet. Huo Lianchen did not because there was no one, but his straight back was a little soft. He just looked ahead, and a slight sneer of coldness crossed the corner of his mouth. The night was already very deep, and his knees were numb. His stomach would ''coo coo'' from the beginning, but it seemed that he would not cry because he was filled with air. It''s just that if you don''t eat for a day, your body will be very sad for teenagers with long body. A voice came from behind. Huo Lianchen glanced back and saw something put in front of him. "I don''t want to owe you anything..." Huo Qi said coldly. "Today, I''m going to fight this one. You''re the one to be punished. That''s my purpose." He was obviously in a strange mood. He paused and looked at the bread and milk. "Of course, you can be spineless and don''t eat it. It''s convenient for me to beat you tomorrow!" Huo Lianchen''s eyes were slightly deep, but Huo Qishen seemed afraid of being found and left. In fact, Huo Lianchen was thinking Is Huo Qishen afraid that he was found by his father that the fight was caused by him, or was he afraid that he sent things... Or was he afraid that when he was found, he sent food for nothing? Huo Lianchen was still kneeling, but he ate what Huo Qishen gave him. When he ate it, he was actually happy. Well, although... Others don''t know he''s happy. "Ding" came, and the elevator reached the first floor, interrupting Huo Lianchen''s thoughts. Before the elevator door opened, the faint smile at the bottom of his eyes was instantly covered by indifference. Stepping out of the elevator, he is still the illegitimate son of the Huo family... Huo Lianchen. Huo Lianchen doesn''t like the Huo family, because no matter what reason, his father owes his mother, and Mrs. Huo deprives his mother of everything. That''s because Mrs. Huo forced everything that belonged to her mother with a door-to-door match... She forced her mother who had been pregnant with him and was already her father and wife at that time! Later, although my father was in pain, he still had a relationship with Mrs. Huo, didn''t he? Men How many can control the two meat? Although he later learned that his father was also used by Mrs. Huo to have a relationship with her. But some things happen, just happen. It belongs to him. He wants it back. I don''t know why. He hates Mrs. Huo and Mrs. Huo... But he likes Huo Qishen''s brother inexplicably. Xu yes, because his mother had difficulty giving birth to him, and later lost the ability to give birth again. He doesn''t like the feeling of being alone Well, that''s all! ¡­¡­ Mrs. Huo left and went back to the nursing home. This morning''s episode seemed like a farce. However, Huo Qishen was as happy as a child. Because... I was going to fight for a long time, my lord mother. Because Huo Lianchen came today, he helped him! Now he must show that he must seize yanmiao and not be robbed by Huo Lianchen. Yan Miao looked at Huo Qishen''s happy appearance and smiled, "in other words, how do I think Huo Lianchen deliberately told your mother today, and then... Deliberately came out?" Huoqi snorted coldly and didn''t answer. "Whether it''s true or false, I appreciate him." Yanmiao handed Xiaomi porridge to Huo Qishen. "In fact, you said that on purpose at that time. On the one hand, whether Huo Lianchen''s words are true or false, you also want to seize the opportunity?" "Yes." Huo Qishen answered and said awkwardly, "yanmiao, we''re only sure it doesn''t take 12 hours. Can you stop talking about Huo Lianchen with me now?" He stared, "when you are with me, you can only think of me, and only have eyes for me!" Looking at some childish Huo Qishen, yanmiao suddenly smiled. Maybe Huo Lianchen is not as deep as Huo Lianchen on the surface, and Huo Qishen... It''s not as deep as Huo Qishen on the surface! The brothers just don''t know how to get along, but they don''t really want to get along. It''s just that there''s a Mrs. Huo in the middle Whether Huo Lianchen is true or false, yanmiao doesn''t know. But the whole people in Huakang hospital know that Huo Lianchen is really chasing yanmiao. Not only the flower offensive, but also the next shift will pick her up. Occasionally come and see her and bring some snacks that women love to eat... Such a man can easily steal women''s hearts. Soon, the small gossip of Huakang hospital was divided into two camps. Those who support Huo Qishen and Huo Lianchen each account for half Yanmiao is helpless. However, she doesn''t think she will waver Because Huo Qishen, a dandy, must be better than Huo Lianchen when it comes to romance and women''s mind. Besides, yanmiao thinks that Huo Lianchen has done so much, maybe... Just for Mrs. Huo. That day, Huo Lianchen came again, brought some snacks to the nurses outside God, and harvested a large number of fans. Yan Miao was helpless. "I have a little time now. Don''t you mind talking about it?" Huo Lianchen looked deeply at yanmiao and nodded slightly. They didn''t go anywhere else. They are still the leisure Hall of the hospital "Is he all right?" Huo Lianchen opened his mouth when yanmiao put the coffee in front of him. "What''s the matter with him? Shouldn''t there be someone special to report to you?" When Yan Miao said this, he looked at Huo Lianchen''s line of sight and looked at it through. Talking to smart people often doesn''t need to beat around the bush. For example, Huo Lianchen asked about Huo Qishen. And yanmiao also felt that he didn''t intend to hide anything Both of them were silent. Yanmiao asked, "in fact, you did all this to show Mrs. Huo? Because it''s not a match she can recognize." After a slight pause, her voice said with a trace of hesitation, "I know something about you and your mother in the mouth of that awkward ghost huoqishen." Huo Lianchen didn''t change his face. He picked up his coffee and drank, "I don''t like milk and sugar." "I know, you just said." Yanmiao glanced at the coffee. "I think the black coffee is too bitter for you to drink now?" Huo Lianchen frowned slightly and looked at yanmiao. He listened to her and said, "you had a good time. Not only did Huo Qishen feel a little nervous and can''t understand... Whether you chased me or not, but also Mrs. Huo clearly didn''t want to accept me, but she can only accept me." She smiled, "Huo Lianchen, why don''t Huo Qishen know that you are for him?" "How do you know that when it''s true and false, it''s true and false?" Huo Lianchen''s eyes opened slowly with a trace of deep meaning, "have you ever thought... In fact, do I really want to chase you?" Chapter 1722 Yan Miao was stunned at Huo Lianchen''s sight. For a moment, he forgot how to react. Huo Lianchen''s face was calm and his eyes looked at yanmiao faintly, as if there was a vortex in the depths. People couldn''t help but want to explore his world, but they were afraid to get close. Yan Miao frowned, "then why can''t I guess? You''re fake, just for Huo Qishen?" Huo Lianchen lowered his eyes and picked up the coffee to drink. But I suddenly thought of the sweet and greasy taste of the milk when I just put it into my mouth. I made my eyebrows clear and put down the coffee. "Huo Lianchen, you are not as cold as you show." Yan Miao''s voice was firm, "in fact, even if you really want to chase me, it doesn''t matter... After all, it''s your freedom." "Yes." Huo Lianchen answered faintly. "Ignore you, that''s my freedom." Yan Miao said with a smile, "Huo Qishen is very childish, but he doesn''t care, as long as he suits me..." Huo Lianchen looked at yanmiao with a trace of complexity in his sight, but there was a cold feeling in the corner of his mouth. Yan Miao quietly looked at Huo Lianchen for a few seconds and asked, "Huo Lianchen, aren''t you tired like this...?" Huo Lianchen frowned slightly. Only people saw his thunder means, but no one ever asked him if he was tired?! "Are you really not tired if you help your brother like this and let everyone in the outside world misunderstand you?" Yan Miao asked. Huo Lianchen sneered, "help him?" His eyes grew colder. "You think too much." After that, he seemed not to want to continue the topic, put down his overlapping legs, got up and wanted to leave. "Just chase you, just chase me!" Huo Lianchen left such a sentence to yanmiao before leaving. Yanmiao didn''t say anything more. He just looked at Huo Lianchen and smiled. Finally, he whispered, "is it so difficult to admit that he cares about a person? Such a big man clearly knows that the things of the previous generation have nothing to do with the next generation, but he is still lying in the vortex..." With his mouth down, yanmiao got up and went back to the Department. As soon as I got out of the elevator, I saw Li Yunze looking at something at the nurse station. She walked forward. "Li Shao." "Yes." Li Yunze answered faintly, glanced at yanmiao and said, "the worst thing to avoid during working hours is the bad heart of dealing with personal affairs..." he took back his sight, signed his name on the medical record book and explained, "you will be the main knife for the operation the day after tomorrow, and Director Wang will be the second knife." "...." Yan Miao took a puff from the corner of his mouth, "Li Shao?" Li Yunze put down his pen and looked at her, "secondary vocational surgery assessment." Yan Miao slightly pondered and nodded, "OK." "That day, Huo Qishen seemed to be discharged from the hospital?" Li Yunze looked sideways at the head nurse. The head nurse was stunned and nodded. Although Huo Qishen is on the VIP floor, we are still more concerned about his affairs in the hospital because of yanmiao. Well, to put it bluntly, it''s gossip! Li Yunze nodded and looked at yanmiao. "Yanmiao, I made a mistake this time. I won''t approve your assessment in recent two years." "I understand." Yanmiao knows that Li Yunze deliberately chose Huo Qishen to do the operation examination on the day she was discharged from the hospital. In fact, she wants to test her psychological quality. After Li Yunze explained some things, he left God. Today, J''s birthday, Gu Beichen held a small birthday party for him in the villa. In the past, it was his own family. J is a child without a home. Later, he was taken away by Shi Shaoqin. Although he lived in a place, he didn''t have the smell of home. After all, Shi Shaoqin is no longer a person who makes people feel at home. Later, because of Xiao Yan, Shi Shaoqin owed Jian Mo and asked J to come with her. On the one hand, J found the feeling of home, on the other hand, it is a small compensation for Jane. "Very happy?" Shi Shaoqin listened to J''s voice and his eyes were deep. J raised his eyebrow. "Of course..." he drove back from school. "Qin Shao, I like this feeling." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin answered faintly. He also likes The feeling of being around and being with someone. J now has a name and "family". It''s good! Although he is not a kind-hearted person, when he "picked up" J, he was different from trying to tear up Beichen''s temperament. He had some pity for J. Therefore, at the beginning, J was a special existence in Mo palace. Since he was a child, he has shown his super-high ability in computer. Put it around him, he gives him enough space for ability development, and j returns what he wants. So, put J next to Jane Mo, he can rest assured. Because although J is a little proud, he is a considerate child. "Qin Shao, will it be possible for you to celebrate my birthday with Gu Beichen and Jian Mo?" J suddenly asked, with a bit of a joke in his tone. "No!" Shi Shaoqin answered indifferently. J tilted his lips and was not surprised by Shi Shaoqin''s answer. Not only because Shi Shaoqin doesn''t celebrate birthdays at all, but also because "Are you afraid to see Gu Beichen and Jane Moxiu''s love?" J, the dead child, is a little backed up and speaks more recklessly. Shi Shaoqin''s face was slightly cold. "Do you think I''m out of reach now... I can''t lock you up, can I?" J smiled, "no!" He raised his eyebrows and said with a smile in his voice, "I know... If you shut me down, Jane will be unhappy!" "..." Shi Shaoqin took a breath from the corner of his mouth and felt that "a simple foam in this life will ruin his life". J ''hee hee'' smiled, "Qin Shao, Jian Mo is very happy now. He was very happy when he received the melon seeds you sent... Anyway, Gu Beichen was not happy that day." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were filled with a thin smile. He smiled helplessly as J became more and more slippery. Are the people around Jane Mo naturally happy and wanton? J used to be a little bored and wouldn''t joke with people like this Now J is no longer the computer genius in Mo palace. Now he... Is just Jian Yao, a big boy who has a genius mind but can live happily. Shi Shaoqin hung up the phone and stood in front of the window looking at the sea In the past, he liked to draw the curtains so that only a gap was left to see the outside world. When did he like such a large piece of light? "Stone, stone..." star''s cry came with the sound of beating the door, and there was anger in his young voice. Shi Shaoqin frowned slightly and turned to open the door When the door opened, star grabbed his palm and left. Shi Shaoqin wondered, but he didn''t ask the little guy what was wrong. He just let him drag him to the restaurant. There was a strange smell in the air. The servants and chefs trembled one by one, and their faces resisted with fear... But they didn''t know what to do. "What''s the matter?" Shi Shaoqin suddenly sank his face. Star looked at the crowd and looked up at you like Shi Shaoqin. "Star wants to eat dumplings, they don''t do it!" Star''s words suddenly... Shi Shaoqin''s face suddenly became cold! Chapter 1723 Everyone held their breath at this moment. There are new servants here. Because they know what star means to Shi Shaoqin, when star wants to eat dumplings and the cook refuses to do it, they feel that the cook is crazy. Sure enough, Qin Shao came They will be punished for disobeying star. However, people in the kitchen have been thinking about the same problem. They still remember how Jian Mo made dumplings when he was in Mo palace Everyone forgot to breathe because Shi Shaoqin changed his face when star mentioned eating dumplings. Even those who have experienced Jian Mo making dumplings in Mo palace suddenly have an idea at this moment... That is, will Shi Shaoqin throw star out because he can''t control his anger. Star is still looking back at his face. Obviously, he doesn''t understand why Shi Shaoqin changed his face. Although the little guy is clever and clever on weekdays, he is still a little bit He also has the willfulness of children. Besides, I was spoiled by Shi Shaoqin "Stone..." star slightly tooted his small mouth, "eat dumplings!" Shi Shaoqin has never eaten dumplings for star, and there is no such thing in Mo palace... Even if he goes outside, star has never touched it. In other words, star will never know the existence of dumplings. "Who?" A word, showing the anger under forbearance, and some bloodthirsty mania that is silent in the depths of my heart but turned out. Everyone secretly exchanged glances and felt that they were going to die "Stone?" Star blinked blankly and suddenly released Shi Shaoqin''s hand. The little guy had never seen Shi Shaoqin like this. At that moment, he seemed not to be his stone... The little guy was a little afraid of him. Undoubtedly, star''s sudden fear at the moment made Shi Shaoqin''s suppressed anger reach the top The whole restaurant was filled with dignity under repression. All the people dared not breathe for fear that they would die after Shi Shaoqin noticed. He looked at the air and felt a strange smell in his eyes. This is the first time that star will be afraid of stones. The fog in the eyes came out in a tense and dignified atmosphere. Star''s small mouth was flat, as if he was about to cry, but he didn''t dare to cry... Or he didn''t understand why the cook didn''t make dumplings and the stones were so scary. "Stone..." star shouted in a soft voice, which was obviously a little nervous. At the moment, Shi Shaoqin seemed to be haunted by the humiliation in his memory. He couldn''t hear star''s cry at all. The people in the restaurant felt the murderous spirit in the air one by one, which could not be reached even if star was there. "Who is it?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was cold and could freeze people instantly. Wherever his eyes went, they threw a sharp blade on each other. Everyone began to tremble uncontrollably. Under the pressure of fear, they shook their heads one after another, "we... We don''t know..." Shi Shaoqin''s eyes finally fell on the chef. He saw that the chef was trembling and could not speak completely. "Yes... Yes... Little... Little master..." the chef tried to make himself complete. "When he came in, he said he wanted to eat... Eat dumplings... We... We don''t know..." Listening to the chef''s words, star seemed to know why Shi Shaoqin was angry. He had stepped back a little because of fear. Now he came forward timidly, gently grabbed Shi Shaoqin''s finger with his small hand, said with a small mouth: "star was seen on Qingqing''s computer... Can''t you eat stones and dumplings?" His face was curious, "but I think those people are happy to eat. There are many kinds of fillings... And shrimp fillings!" Star said, with the bright light of the child''s desire for new things in his eyes. However, when star described dumplings in detail, everyone in the restaurant had only one idea My life is over today! "You stay here!" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was tense, trying to suppress his uncontrollable anger, pulled out his fingers in star''s small hand, turned and walked outside the restaurant. Star burst into tears with a sudden ''wow'', and looked at Shi Shaoqin''s back dimly. His small body trembled slightly because of crying, "stone..." When Shi Shaoqin was crying, his steps suddenly stopped, but only for a moment, and then he left in a big step. Everyone stood where they were and didn''t know how to react. They just hoped that Shi Shaoqin wouldn''t spread his anger to them in the event of an emergency today. When star saw Shi Shaoqin ignoring him, his small mouth shriveled and his tears kept falling. After leaving the restaurant, Shi Shaoqin went directly to Qingqing''s side. Push open the door, Qingqing is not inside. What was playing in the computer on the desk, he walked over. It''s a movie. Shi Shaoqin''s eyes were slightly cold, and his white slender fingers crossed the computer keyboard. After a while, he called up the previous playback record I didn''t watch anything about dumplings, but there was a built-in advertisement in this film, talking about dumplings! Shi Shaoqin''s whole body was shrouded in haze, and all his emotions and light seemed to be pulled into the darkness under the shame in an instant. It''s something you can''t mention in your heart. You can''t touch it at any time. Shi Shaoqin thought he had come out, but it turned out that he lied to himself! "Qin Shao?" Qingqing came in at the right time and was surprised to see Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin raised his eyes slowly from the computer. His eyes seemed calm, but he knew that they fell on Qingqing. Qingqing swallowed involuntarily. She didn''t know what had happened? At that time, star was taken to the back by Carney to play with the big cat. She was fine, so she casually made a movie to watch. But after watching it for two minutes, Siyue asked him to help. This is... What happened? "Star should play with Carney in the back with the big cat..." Qingqing thought Shi Shaoqin was looking for star, so she said. "Should I?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice was cold. Qingqing suddenly widens her eyes and subconsciously thinks what''s wrong with star. She just wants to ask, and suddenly feels something wrong. If what happens to star, Qin Shao can''t be here! "What is your duty?" Shi Shaoqin asked coldly. Qingqing smiled at the corner of her mouth, "accompany star and take care of star!" "Now?" Shi Shaoqin asked again. Qingqing bit her lower lip and didn''t know how to answer. On weekdays, star will also play with Carney and sample. At that time, most of her just take a break... What''s the matter with Qin Shao today? "Someone!" Shi Shaoqin suddenly shouted in a deep voice. Someone came in outside, "Qin Shao." "Pull her out..." Shi Shaoqin said slowly in a bloodthirsty voice, "don''t kill me!" Chapter 1724 "Yes!" Someone answered and went to hold Qingqing. Qingqing suddenly widened her eyes, "Qin Shao, why?" She said hastily, "what''s wrong with me? If it''s because of star, I''ll improve... Qin Shao, you know, I really care about star!" Shi Shaoqin didn''t seem to hear Qingqing''s words or see her frightened eyes. He just looked at her coldly and was taken away. There are many ways to torture people to death in the Mo palace. Maybe because of the existence of star, everyone has forgotten such cruelty. Or, everyone feels that as long as there is star, there will be no such cruelty "What happened?" Shi juechi heard the voice and looked at Qingqing who was taken away and twisted her eyebrows. "Jueshao, please, please plead with qinshao and me..." Qingqing now knew that if she mentioned asking star to plead, she would only die worse. She could only put her hope on Shi Jueshi who came just in time. Shi Jue Chi frowned and looked at Shi Shaoqin who came out of Qingqing''s room. "Shaoqin?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but his indifferent eyes crossed Qingqing. The air was filled with the smell of cold Jue killing. In this air, Shi Jue Chi was stunned for a moment. Because, for three years... He has not felt it from Shi Shaoqin. What did Qingqing do to make Shaoqin so? Just because she is the person star has been taking care of. Shaoqin shouldn''t be like this "Qing Qing!" Star didn''t know when he came from the restaurant, "Qingqing!" Looking at Qingqing who was taken away, star was in a hurry. "You let go of Qingqing, let go..." star pulled Qingqing, and the person holding her didn''t dare to take it away, for fear of hurting the little guy. "Let go!" Star was angry and kicked the man who was holding Qingqing. The little guy used a lot of strength, but how much strength can a child have. The man didn''t let go, and the little guy was also smart. He hurried to Shi Shaoqin, "stone, let him let Qingqing go, star wants Qingqing!" Shi Shaoqin remained unmoved. The man who carried Qingqing left with him after all This result surprised Shi Jue Chi. Even if it is the bottom line, Shaoqin will give up for star in his cognition. How could "Stone, star, don''t eat dumplings..." star''s voice suddenly choked, and the tears that had stopped overflowed in an instant, "star wants Qingqing! Sobbing... Star wants Qingqing, star, don''t eat dumplings! Stone..." While crying, star pulled Shi Shaoqin''s clothes with small hands in fear and gently pulled them. Shi Shaoqin''s face was still bad, and the crazy anger accumulated in the bottom of his eyes swept him into the shackles of memory. Shi juechi also changed her face. Dumplings Why did star suddenly eat dumplings? Most importantly, how could he know about dumplings? All the people in Mo palace know that after Mo Mo made dumplings in Mo Palace last time and Shaoqin had a fire... This is taboo. How could Qingqing let star eat dumplings without weight? But at this moment, no one knows. Under the wrong circumstances, star, who didn''t see the tiger in the back, ran back to find Qingqing. At that time, Qingqing was just called away by Xiao Siyue. Star ran to see the computer, and there was no coincidence that dumplings were playing on it Star has never eaten that thing. However, the people above were so happy and the dumplings looked lovely. He ran to the kitchen to eat dumplings. An accident, as if it deserved this series of things. "Stone, star wants Qingqing... Sobbing... Don''t eat dumplings..." star raised his face hazily with tears, and his voice trembled because of crying. ¡°Star£¡¡± Shi juechi cried out in a hurry, worried, and his eyes fell on Shi Shaoqin''s face. Sure enough, his face was too cold. Star looked at Shi Jue Chi dimly with tearful eyes. His delicate and beautiful little face was covered with tears. When did the little guy cry like this? Even if he had an injection before, he didn''t cry because of the pain. Now he is crying so sad. "Shaoqin," said Shi Jue Chi, gritting his teeth, "do you have to make star so sad? Are you not afraid of Qingqing''s affairs and leave him any shadow?" Shi Shaoqin suddenly clenched his hand. His beautiful handsome face was gloomy. It was clear that he was going crazy because of the past, but he was trying to bear it because star was around. "Shaoqin!" "Stone..." Star choked and let Shi Shaoqin bite his teeth and say, "go and let Qingqing go." He said and looked down at star. At this moment, he knew what his state was like. "You and uncle Chi went to find Qingqing!" Star didn''t move. "Go!" Shi Shaoqin is afraid that he can''t help it as long as he takes a little longer, and then he will do something to hurt star. Shi Jue Chi was also worried. Without considering anything else, she hurried forward to embrace star and said, "star, let''s find Qingqing." Star did not speak, but looked at Shi Shaoqin with tears in his eyes. The little guy is smart. He seems to be aware of something, but he is confused. "Stone..." star shouted softly, but he saw that Shi Shaoqin had turned and left. Star''s small mouth is badly deflated. He keeps looking at Shi Shaoqin''s back when he leaves. His small nose is sour. "Uncle Chi..." star held back his cry. Shi juechi was sad. She looked back at Shi Shaoqin, who had gone far. The bottom of her eyes crossed with worry and said softly, "star, good, stone just doesn''t like dumplings. We won''t mention it in the future, huh?" "Hmm..." star mumbled. "Why don''t stones like dumplings?" He asked incomprehensibly. Shi juechi was silent and gently rubbed star''s small head without explanation. When Shi juechi and star went to find Qingqing, Qingqing was being executed. Fortunately, they came quickly and only started. Shi juechi asked someone to take Qingqing to the medical room. He thought star would accompany her here. However, when the little guy saw Qingqing entering the medical room, he looked up at him and said, "star wants a stone!" Stone Jue Chi twisted his eyebrows. "Star, stone is a little unhappy at the moment. Just stay here with Qingqing for a while, okay?" "Not good..." star''s voice was determined and capricious. ¡°Star£¡¡± Stone Jue Chi eyebrow heart locked. Star smiled and went to Qingqing. "Qingqing, have a good rest. The stone won''t hit you again. Star can guarantee it!" Qingqing tried to pull the corners of her mouth and wanted to talk, but she had no strength because of pain. "Qing Qing, don''t be angry with the stone, okay?" Star asked, fanning his still red eyes. Qingqing nodded, "star is good... Qingqing, Qingqing is not angry." "Yes!" Star gently touched Qingqing''s face with his small hand, "star has gone to find a stone." "OK..." Qingqing said weakly. Star turns around and moves back and forth at the corners of Shi Jue Chi''s mouth. When he wants to stop him, he strides his legs to find Shi Shaoqin. "Jue Shao," Kani several people heard about it, looked at star and asked, "will it be..." Chapter 1725 "No matter how hard Shaoqin is, he won''t hurt star." Shi juechi opened his mouth. There was a trace of confusion and uncertainty in his voice. "Carney, I''m suddenly a little selfish at the moment. I know it may be useless and will make star afraid, but I still hope Shaoqin can break through more demons because of star!" "But just in case..." Xiao Siyue twisted her eyebrows, stopped talking, sighed and went in to see Qingqing. The sample scratched his head and said in a simple voice: "when will star go to qinshao... Will he be frightened?" Shi juechi and Carney looked at the sample at the same time. When Shi juechi frowned, Carney rolled over his eyes and said disgustingly, "if you don''t talk, no one has a problem... You think we''re stupid, don''t you know?" "Then let star pass?" The sample is still naive, but it is obvious that there is worry in his eyes. "Alas!" Shi juechi sighed and looked at the direction star left. His sight gradually became complicated It''s a kind of feeling that the palm and palm are both flesh. No matter which side is cut with a knife, it will hurt. But he seemed to have no choice This is an opportunity, isn''t it?! "Shall we go and have a look?" Carney asked. Stone Jue Chi thought for a while, then slowly opened his mouth: "wait a moment and then go." After a pause, he said with a deep sigh, "I hope Shaoqin can break through the demons..." "In fact, I don''t know why Qin Shao is so sensitive to that thing?" The sample scratched his head and asked. Carney looked at him and opened his mouth as if to say something. Finally, he stopped and said, "I don''t know!" Then he and Xiaoxiang both looked at Shi Jue Chi. In fact, for the people in the Mo palace, Shi Shaoqin''s taboos were discovered after being violated again and again. In fact, no one knows what taboos he has. Shi Jue Chi glanced at the two curious people, but he didn''t say anything, but his face was getting heavier and heavier. Shaoqin is good-looking. His good-looking completely reached a peak in his youth. Such a gentle and sunny man, perfect as jade... Can he really come out after suffering such destruction? ¡­¡­ The voice of horror kept coming from the room. The movement was familiar and feared by the former people of the ink palace. In particular, such sharp destructive power is often the night of the full moon... It''s like being cursed in ancient times. However, since the existence of star, Shi Shaoqin has not been like this! This is the first time in recent years! "Er..." The roaring voice showed the danger under the breath of death, followed by violent noise coming out of the room. As soon as star went upstairs, he confirmed that Shi Shaoqin was in the study. The little guy''s eyes were still red and looked at the direction of the study. Because of fear, the little mouth unconsciously pricked up. There was a sound like a trapped animal coming out of the study, mixed with the sound of something falling to the ground... The whole air was filled with a trembling breath. "Stone..." star''s small mouth was shrunk uncontrollably. The little guy even looked in horror at the direction of the study. Star stood there for a while before he timidly walked over Standing at the door of the study, the little guy stood on tiptoe and wanted to press the doorknob to open the door. However, when my little hand was holding the door, suddenly... A loud bang hit the door. Star''s face was uncontrollably frightened, and his little hand subconsciously retracted because of the sound. The sound inside still came intermittently. Star''s eyes began to turn red again, and he kept shouting "stone", but he didn''t dare to open the door. How smart, in the end is a child. When the stone who has always been gentle to him suddenly becomes angry and crazy Star''s eyes are full of fear! The tears were falling out. For a moment, it seemed as if star was crying uncontrollably again after the stone didn''t want him. "Stone, stone..." star didn''t dare to open the door. His little hand kept beating the door of the study. "Stone, open the door... Wuwu... Stone, star wants a stone... Wuwu... Open the door!" Star''s voice was drowned in the angry voice of Shi Shaoqin In the study, there was already a tragedy. The flying things, the dark environment, and the strange smell from Shi Shaoqin Star''s voice was hoarse, but Shi Shaoqin didn''t open the door. One door apart, it is clear that they are the most loving ones, big and small. At the moment, they all fall into their own "nightmare" and can''t extricate themselves. I don''t know how long it took. Star''s crying body smoked, and Shi Shaoqin didn''t open the door. When Shi juechi came, she saw star''s tearful eyes looking at him, and immediately twisted her eyebrows. Star will break through the devil slowly, and then he will break through his heart. But did not expect that he should be indifferent? Thinking, Shi juechi didn''t have time to say anything. Suddenly... Star''s small body shook slightly. ¡°Star£¡¡± Shi juechi was stunned and stepped forward with an arrow step, just catching star''s collapsed body. Chi Jue, who is still in the medical room, shouted, "as soon as Chi Jue is still crazy, go to the medical room." "Oh!" Kani, who has always been calm, was scared to a slight pause because star fainted. After answering the voice, he reacted and hurried to ask someone to call the doctor. Shi juechi''s face was a little white. He looked at Star fainting in his arms with worry. The bottom of his eyes was completely remorse. He shouldn''t have the luxury of asking star to help Shaoqin break through his demons. If star had anything in case, he wouldn''t forgive himself for not saying, and Shaoqin would completely seal himself up. If you make a fool of yourself then Shi juechi didn''t dare to think down. He was afraid that if he had a good direction, it would become more chaotic. The doctor is checking star. Everyone knows that if there is something wrong with star, the sky in Mogong... Will change. Time passes minute by minute, which is suffering for the waiting people and doctors. Hearing that star fainted, Qingqing hurried to see him, regardless of her injury. "How''s star?" Everyone is nervous. Look at Qingqing. They all look bad. "I shouldn''t have left my computer on." Qingqing said, and tears came out at once. She bit her lip and her face was completely worried. Compared with others, Qingqing is the person who has always been with star. Under the condition of getting along day and night, star is not only the young master of Mo palace to serve... But her relatives. "What I''m most worried about now is..." Shi juechi''s face is ugly. After a pause, he said, "don''t be that there''s something wrong with the medicine to solve silence!" Chapter 1726 As soon as Shi juechi''s words fell, everyone''s face immediately became ugly. "Xi Cheng just went out again..." Carney gritted his teeth and looked at the clinic with worry. Shi Jue Chi closed his eyes. "I hope I''m too nervous." Everyone didn''t answer, and each one resisted Gang Shi Jue Chi''s worry in his heart. However, he knew in his heart that there was no possibility at all. Otherwise, how could star suddenly faint? The air outside is dignified because of worry. Everyone''s heart seems to be oppressed by such a dignified breath, which is almost unable to breathe. Suddenly Footsteps came. The people subconsciously looked around and saw that Shi Shaoqin''s anger didn''t dissipate and came over. "Shaoqin?" "Qin Shao..." Qingqing bit her lip. At this moment, although she knew that Shi Shaoqin saw her, she might bear the brunt... But she didn''t leave. If star really caused something by her accident, she won''t forgive herself. "Where''s star!" Shi Shaoqin asked unsteadily. Everyone did not answer, for fear that Shi Shaoqin would be violent again. Just as the air became more and more tense, the door of the examination room was suddenly opened, and everyone subconsciously looked at it When the doctor came out, he saw Shi Shaoqin. He was stunned first, then he breathed out secretly. After thinking "fortunately", he said, "star is not in any condition. He will faint suddenly... It should be caused by the breath when crying." The stone Jue Chi and below all breathed a sigh of relief. Fortunately... It''s not because of the drug to dilute silence. Shi Shaoqin''s face was very bad. When everyone thought about how he would be, he saw him step to the examination room He didn''t say anything. If he ignored his face, it was as if he was not happy or sad at the moment. "Less Jue?" Carney swallowed secretly after Shi Shaoqin entered the examination room. "Let''s go!" Shi juechi opened his mouth lightly, deeply coagulated his eyes in the examination room, turned and stepped away. Carney and Qingqing looked at each other, signaled that the waiting people dispersed, and followed Shi juechi out Standing at the gate of the ancient castle and looking at the large sunflower field, inexplicably, the two suddenly had a desolate feeling. Shi juechi looked at the sunflower floating slightly with the light wind, with a heavy look... After all, Shaoqin still couldn''t get out of that memory. Did he force it? Such humiliation caused Shaoqin a lot of demons in his heart... He even expected to come out because of star. Everyone has a city in his heart. Even the closest people around him can''t touch it For Shaoqin, the humiliating and abnormal past can only imprison him after all. ¡­¡­ When Shi Shaoqin went into the examination room, star just woke up. When the little guy saw Shi Shaoqin, his mouth was flat. He opened his arms and said, "stone, hold!" Shi Shaoqin possessed himself and picked up star without saying anything The little guy put his arms around Shi Shaoqin''s neck. After rubbing his small face on his face, he skillfully lay on his shoulder. One big and one small didn''t speak. At the moment, they seem to depend on each other. I don''t know how long it took. After a long time, star felt the complex breath of Shi Shaoqin again. When he stirred his eyelashes and wanted to cry, Shi Shaoqin''s voice came gently. "Star, stone will take you back to your parents... Okay?" Shi Shaoqin''s voice sounded calm, but it was obvious that there were already unspeakable emotions in the bottom of his eyes and began to spread. Star gets up and looks at Shi Shaoqin. The little guy''s concept of parents is vague. Since his birth, star has been around Shi Shaoqin. For him, Shi Shaoqin is his family. "By the stone, you can''t stay." Shi Shaoqin opened his mouth gently and endured his imprisoned thoughts. This will happen today. He knows how hard it took him to hold back He didn''t know what would happen next time? "Does the stone want star again?" Asked star. His voice had become choked, and his eyes were full of tears. Star doesn''t remember the things in the days of "amnesia". However, what happened before "amnesia", especially the time when stone didn''t want him, is a deep memory for the little guy. Shi Shaoqin looked at star and felt very sour. "Stone doesn''t want you, but... You can''t be with star!" "I don''t want... I just want stones." Star suddenly hugged Shi Shaoqin again and apologized while crying, "star will be very good, star will listen to the words of stone... Don''t eat dumplings anymore... Wuwu... Does the stone want star... Wuwu..." Listening to the little guy''s cry, Shi Shaoqin''s eyebrows began to tighten with his heart. ¡°Star¡­¡­¡± "No stone, no star, okay?" Star cried pitifully, "as long as star wants a stone... Star will be very good... Sobbing... Very good..." Shi Shaoqin closed his eyes. He knew he couldn''t be greedy for the light given to him by star. If this happens next time, he is afraid to create an irreparable shadow on star''s growth. From the "dumpling" incident, the whole air of Mo palace was shrouded in a condensed atmosphere. But this situation hasn''t changed because Shi Shaoqin finished venting and star woke up after crying and fainting. Yes, it''s just a more dignified breath. The next day, the sunny weather did not dispel such dignity. On the contrary, in contrast, everyone seems to be strained by the dual pressure of external force and internal pressure. "Shaoqin," said Shi juechi, looking at Shi Shaoqin with such a calm face, then at star with red and swollen eyes, twisting his eyebrows and asking, "do you have to send star away?" Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but turned around and looked out of the window. Star wriggled his clothes with his small hands. After his stone told him about his parents last night, he still just wanted to stay with the stone. However, it seems that stone doesn''t want him because of dumplings Someone came in and looked at star, who was crying. His voice was dignified and said, "Qin Shao, the plane to take star to Los Angeles is ready." "Yes." Shi Shaoqin just answered faintly, slightly tilted his head and looked at star, "let''s go!" "Stone..." star shouted. He couldn''t hold back his tears and cried again in an instant. However, this time he didn''t cry, but looked wronged and sad. Shi Shaoqin takes back his sight and doesn''t look at star. He''s afraid... He won''t give up after one more look. Star should return to Beichen and Mo''er. It will only be better than being around him! Shi juechi sighed deeply. Knowing that there was no room for turning around, he had to come forward and pick up star. Star looked at the stone pitifully, with longing in his eyes Little he, at this moment, just want the stone to look back at him! Chapter 1727 However, Shi Shaoqin didn''t look back until Shi juechi left slowly holding star. Just after everyone went out, Shi Shaoqin slightly closed his eyes and slowly turned around to see The empty door, but where is star? Shi Shaoqin was filled with sadness, which shrouded him in solitude... Cruel and extravagant. But what else can you expect? Shi Shaoqin looks out of the window. This position. After star goes out, he can still see it for a while After three years, he was greedy. After all, he can''t catch the light, and the light doesn''t belong to him... His world should be dark. Shi Shaoqin stood in front of the window from an angle that star couldn''t see, and his eyes followed star step by step to the airport... The look of his small face turning back frequently affected his heart and tore it a little bit. What kind of reluctance is that? Shi Shaoqin doesn''t think he can describe himself I hope to give star the best in the world, but... He is powerless. So... Parting is such a taste! ha-ha! Shi Shaoqin lowered his eyes slightly, and star couldn''t see it I don''t know when the mobile phone has been held in my hand. Several times, I kept looking back at the direction of the door, hoping that he could go out and stop star from leaving. He almost couldn''t resist. He wanted to call Juchi and tell him... Don''t send star away. But after all, he held back. Let star and his parents still taste the darkness, let him go back to him Finally, whether star wants to go to XK or not is still his own decision. If star doesn''t want to, if Beichen can''t, he''ll find a way Well, it''s the same! It''s just that star is not with him Just so! Shi Shaoqin''s beautiful lips are full of astringent sadness. It turns out that after so much, his heart will hurt. And such pain is for a child. But is star just a child to him? Not It was his stars at night and the sunshine during the day. Now, there are no stars, sunshine... Ha ha, how can there be sunshine in the dark world?! ¡­¡­ Star was sent to a luxury airliner. For fear of the sadness of star''s attachment, Shi Shaoqin didn''t even let Qingqing go together this time. "Uncle Chi..." star shouted softly. Shi juechi thought star would cry as much as yesterday, but although he was crying, he was very quiet. Just silently shed tears, as if he knew that the stone was determined to send him away this time. Shi juechi was also very sad. Her nose was swollen with acid. Inadvertently, tears could be forced out. Rubbing the little guy''s head, Shi Jue Chi sighed softly and said softly, "Uncle Chi and Shi Shi will come and see you when we have time... Huh?" Star dropped his eyes, his nose was sour again, and his voice was soft and waxy. "The stone won''t come to see star..." "How?" Shi juechi tried to raise the corners of her mouth in an attempt to comfort the little guy. "I won''t come to see star!" Star raised his eyes. Although his eyes were pasted with tears, he still couldn''t stop the bright, "Uncle Chi... I think I''m a stone." Before he left, he began to rely on him. This feeling is a child''s natural instinct... An instinct for people close to him. Shi juechi was very sad, but she couldn''t say anything. In fact, he also knew that Shaoqin would not go to see star... At most, he just looked secretly. Because he was afraid of meeting, he would fight for it. Shi Jue Chi took a deep breath, hugged star, and then gently said, "if you don''t dislike uncle Chi, uncle Chi will often come to see you..." "Yes." Star answered softly, full of nasal sounds. Looking at the crying but quiet star, Shi juechi closed his eyes and leaned against the little guy''s forehead. Without saying anything, he gritted his teeth and got off the plane. He is also afraid that Shaoqin''s efforts will be wasted because he gets along with him for one more minute If you can''t get out, let star return to Gu Beichen and Mo Mo, so... It''s good! The plane took off after all. Qingqing and Xiao Siyue have both cried into tears, and their hearts are very painful. Here, especially Qingqing is the most sad. If it hadn''t been for her accident, Mo palace would have been happy. But as star''s plane left the apron, everyone knew that after three years of greed, it turned into illusion. Shi Jue Chi tilted his head and looked at the large sunflower field in the distance, gradually losing his mind. The two Mu sunflower fields newly reclaimed in the back have only begun to sprout. Star didn''t even play enough with big cat, so he had to leave The sight shifted slightly, and Shi Jue Chi looked at Shi Shaoqin standing at the gate of the ancient castle. He looked up slightly and looked at the airliner taking off The wind, blowing the sunflower field, also slightly disordered Shi Shaoqin''s hair. Under the bright sunshine, he is quiet and beautiful, which makes people feel that he can only be viewed from a distance and can not be blasphemed. But it happened that his whole body was shrouded in a layer of haze... People gradually couldn''t see the beauty of him. ¡­¡­ Xiao Mu is roasting the whole sheep. The smell is the ultimate temptation for twenty or thirty children who have been hungry for a long time but are still training. The most important thing is that when the wind blows in the direction of dusk, the fragrance completely pours on the child. All children are doing push ups. Some people can''t support them because of this aroma. And some... They clenched their teeth and insisted, even though the smell made their eyes greedy. Xiao Mu took the dagger and gouged out and cut the barbecue. The taste made a "yiyiyi" sound. The delicious food under that oil stimulates the taste and senses of those children. Some people can''t stand it. They finally give up training and stare at the meat in Xiao Mu''s hand, just like a hungry wolf, ready to rush up at any time. Naturally, they have no chance to rush up and will only be taken away. XK doesn''t need losers! "Master Xiao!" Someone came over and said something in Xiao Mu''s ear. Xiao Mu frowned slightly. He was stunned for a while before he said: "Shi Shaoqin would be willing to send star back to Los Angeles..." he murmured and put down his meat cutting dagger. "This is really beyond my expectation." "That needs..." the man stopped talking. Xiao Mu got up and paced back and forth, wondering whether to do something?! The man stood still, waiting for Lord Xiao''s orders. The sight crossed the children and fell out. It happened to be two adjacent people. A boy, a girl. Such training, even if still a child, the physical strength of men and women is also different. But the girl was obviously stubborn. Everyone was more or less greedy because of the smell of food. However, these two seemed "unmoved". "Let people stare at the Los Angeles Airport..." at the right time, master Xiao said, "in addition, arrange people to act according to the opportunity." Chapter 1728 "Star, it''s almost Los Angeles." The specially equipped flight attendant squatted next to the star seat and said softly, "do you want to sleep again?" Star shook his head. Since leaving Mokong, the little guy has been very quiet. He hardly spoke, basically shaking his head and nodding his head. The flight attendant looked at the beautiful little guy with a wilting look, sighed painfully and went to squeeze him a cup of strange juice. This is what the little guy likes to drink. I hope it can give him a little happiness. Star tilted his head to the small window, looked at the clouds outside, and bit his pink lips, some wilting. The plane finally landed at Los Angeles Airport. It was early morning in Los Angeles, with a slight rain and some fog in the air. Star doesn''t have a good impression of Los Angeles. In his memory, stone doesn''t want him. It''s here, so he doesn''t like it here. Although stone told him yesterday, his parents are here. Star takes back his sight and hangs his eyes. His fine eyelashes cover up the unhappiness in his eyes. "Young master, you can go." A bodyguard came and said. Star chuckled and looked at the bodyguard. "Is the car here to pick it up?" The bodyguard nodded. "Yes, it''s here." "But I want to go there..." star said, pointing to the crowd on the shuttle bus from the small window. "I haven''t taken that." The bodyguard frowned slightly and wanted to refuse, but he remembered Shi Shaoqin''s explanation and asked him to take good care of the young master all the way. As long as he didn''t meet his excessive requirements, he nodded. Besides, several bodyguards can''t afford to lose sight of a child. "Young master, shall I hold you?" A bodyguard asked with an umbrella. "Star, shake your head and I''ll go." With that, he trotted to the shuttle bus. The bodyguard followed, and he could keep up with the little guy with only a step... Soon, several adults crowded into the shuttle bus with star. There are a lot of people inside. The bodyguard wants to hold star for fear that he will be scattered by the crowd. But star doesn''t want to. "I just want a stone to hold..." star has a small temper. "I don''t want to hold except a stone!" Star can only protect several people in the middle. Finally, star can only protect several bodyguards. Fortunately, the connection distance is not very far. In this case, they only need to protect star. Suddenly A bodyguard skilfully crossed a certain position in the carriage, and the heads of different heights shook slightly with the vehicle. There are familiar people talking about something, each with a tired face. The planes that arrive so early either come under the time difference from abroad or are cheap flights in the morning Because it was early, everyone was obviously tired. "What''s the matter?" Asked another bodyguard. The man took back his eyes, shook his head and looked down at Star leaning on his leg. Just now, I didn''t know whether he was thinking too much, or because of such an environment... How did he feel that someone''s eyes were too sharp? That feeling does not belong to the measurement projected by ordinary people. But when he looked at it for the first time, he didn''t find anything. The car soon arrived at the place where it left the airport. As soon as the front and rear doors were opened, the people inside seemed to be eager to rush out. Star''s eyes turned. Just when people were crowded, the little clever put the hand of a boy just held by his mother into the hand of the bodyguard Meanwhile, star has gone to the other door. While getting off the bus, the bodyguard found that it was not star in his hand after only ten seconds. "The young master is gone." The bodyguard said in a deep voice. Suddenly, several bodyguards scattered. "Over there!" One of the bodyguards pointed to the running figure in front of him and hurried after him. Star is just a small one. How can he escape the pursuit of bodyguards? But it was a child who grew up around Shi Shaoqin and had an amazing mind after contacting something When he was on the plane, the little guy had already thought about running away. Naturally, he would be more clever and think about some things he could use in advance. At the same time, there were two shuttle cars getting off the passengers, and the sudden action of the bodyguard attracted everyone''s attention. "Help..." star''s beautiful face was shrouded in fear. He grabbed a very young girl. "Sister, they are bad guys. They want to catch me!" "Ah?" The girl was stunned at first. She looked back at the bodyguard and the beautiful star. Subconsciously, she thought of human traffickers. This little boy... Well, look at the clothes, should it be a little boy? Such beauty can certainly sell at a good price, right? "They secretly took me away..." star said, with even more fear in his eyes. Now, everyone has only one understanding... These people are human traffickers! "Young master..." a bodyguard was about to arrive. Suddenly, many people poured out of the crowd to intercept. Although we don''t know what the situation is, we completely ignore what the bodyguard calls the young master. After all, someone robbed the child and pretended to be the child''s parents. "Don''t be afraid, sister, take you first!" The girl picked up star and hurried down the aisle. The bodyguard sinks his eyes. Don''t say what will happen if he loses star. What if the girl is a bad person? The bodyguard was worried. He just wanted to do it, but he heard someone say "do something bad and do it again". Suddenly, he surrounded several bodyguards. Those people wore the uniforms of a martial arts team and opened their posture one by one. Star planned to stop the martial arts traffickers by pretending to be volunteers. But I never thought that star would do it first! When Xiao Mu heard the news, his mouth was filled with a smile and said, "star is destined to belong to XK. Look, it''s so small... He has such a good mind!" People around him also laughed, "star doesn''t seem to want to go back to his parents." "Shi Shaoqin was raised by his side since childhood and almost never left..." Xiao Mu smiled. "Otherwise, there is a saying... It''s better to have a mother than to have a mother!" "What Lord Xiao said is." "Is the girl under surveillance?" Xiao Mu asked. "It''s monitored. It''s from Yicheng..." the person around said, "I forgot to pick up my luggage and left with star." Xiao Mu listened and smiled, "just send your luggage." Paused, "the people of the Mo Palace should arrive soon and protect the neighborhood." "Yes..." when the man answered, his mobile phone rang. He picked it up and listened to the report from the people inside. The corners of his mouth pulled uncontrollably. At the same time Listening to Carney''s urgent report, Shi Shaoqin stood up and asked coldly, "what is star missing?" Chapter 1729 Kani''s scalp was numb and said the process. Looking at Shi Shaoqin''s gradually changing face, he said, "it seems that star planned it himself." It''s impossible for a smart guy to escape. Carney swallowed secretly and continued: "Qin Shao, star obviously doesn''t want to look back on Beichen and Jian mo... It''s better..." Carney''s next words were stopped by Shi Shaoqin''s fierce eyes. Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, but turned and walked outside Carney hurried forward. "Qin Shao," he guessed and asked with some uncertainty, "do you want to go and have a look?" "Arrange a plane to Los Angeles." After Shi Shaoqin said this, he took out his mobile phone and called the person in charge of Los Angeles. Everyone knows what''s wrong with star. ¡­¡­ Los Angeles. Under the light rain, the whole city was shrouded in a dreamy haze. Star didn''t expect that his sister sent him to the police station. Star said he was very sad. He''s so cute. Why doesn''t my sister take him home?! "My home is not here. I just came to do something." The girl said, "you follow me. On the one hand, you can''t tell which city you were in and don''t know your parents'' information... I can''t send you back. On the other hand, the police brother can help you." Star drooped his small shoulders and looked at the police station. He thought he would soon be caught by the stone man, and then sent him to his father and mother. "What''s the matter?" Seeing that star was in a bad mood, the girl asked curiously, "can you find your father and mother... Unhappy?" Star fanned his eyelashes, and tears gradually accumulated in his innocent eyes. "Don''t cry, don''t cry!" The girl felt helpless and distressed. "My sister will accompany you until the police brother contacts your family." "Those people are bad." Star''s voice was frightened. "I''ll take me from here, too!" "..." the girl obviously didn''t expect that star''s thinking would be so clear. Because of the things and characters she had been in contact with, she subconsciously thought of some things she didn''t have. The girl finally took out her mobile phone and transferred a number. "Why? Just call me when you leave? Little fish, I thought you could be more stubborn." There was some sarcastic voice on the phone, mixed with some anger. The girl called little fish poked at the corners of her mouth and looked at star''s poor appearance. She was afraid that such a beautiful child would finally fall into the tiger''s mouth because of her "irresponsibility". "I have something to do with you." The little fish bit his lower lip. The person on the phone was silent and hissed softly, as if he was also in a tense mood, "say!" The little fish felt the man''s stomach all over. Finally, he said angrily: "I just came to Los Angeles and met several people like human traffickers..." After the little fish roughly explained the situation, he said stuffy, "we are in the north of the city police station at the moment. You say hello here and ask me to call you before you can release people." "Ye Ziyu, you are a trouble maker!" The man opposite sneered, "if you run to Los Angeles so early in the morning, you can share things with you." Ye Ziyu bit his teeth and really wanted to hang up the phone directly. It''s a pity to see star''s poor and clever appearance with a layer of tears... I can''t bear it! "Do you want to help?" Ye Ziyu asked angrily, "isn''t your grandfather in Los Angeles? Aren''t there some of your coworkers here? Can''t you help?" "Hum!" The other side snorted coldly and hung up directly. "..." Ye Ziyu was so angry that she hated it and installed her mobile phone. "Sister..." star brought his pitiful and innocent expression to the extreme. Ye Ziyu hugged star and said softly, "don''t worry, my sister won''t leave you." "Yes." Star answered and kissed Ye Ziyu on the face. Ye Ziyu was suddenly sprouted by the beautiful little man. She looked at star and thought, how sad would it be for parents at home to know that their child had been lost? "Sister," star looked around, "star is a little hungry." "Sister, I''ll buy it for you..." Ye Ziyu just got up and suddenly worried about star. Although this is the police station, "forget it, let me order takeout?" "What is takeout?" Star has curiosity in his eyes. Ye Ziyu took out her mobile phone and asked star to choose while explaining the takeout. Such things are novel to star. "Why don''t we order sour soup dumplings?" Ye Ziyu asked. "Don''t eat dumplings!" Star frowned for the first time. It was both resistant and disgusting. "..." Ye Ziyu pulled at the corners of his mouth. He thought it was the little guy who didn''t like dumplings. He didn''t think much about it, so he turned it over again. Finally, the porridge was bigger and smaller. Just ordered takeout, the policeman who had taken the note came over with steamed stuffed buns and soybean milk in his hand. "Have something to eat first..." "We just ordered takeout." Ye Ziyu was a little embarrassed. "Eat first. Don''t be hungry." After the policeman finished, he handed it to Ye Ziyu and then said, "we checked. Because the child doesn''t know his name, he just knows that his family calls him star, and doesn''t know which city he is in, he wants to check his home. Now he can only wait for the missing person to report." "Is there a report?" Ye Ziyu poked the soybean milk to star. "I met star at the airport so early. Star shouldn''t have just lost it." "I just checked," the policeman shook his head. "Among the children who reported the loss, there was no him." Then he looked at star. Star took a sip of soybean milk and obviously disliked it. The policeman is also a well-informed person. At first glance, the appearance and dress of star should be in good condition at home. "Star," the policeman squatted down and asked, "can you tell me who''s in your family?" "Stone." Star waxy said. "Stone?" The police are light. "Well, stone." Star twinkled his eyes and nodded, "it''s beautiful. Star likes to be with stones!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± Ye Ziyu and the police have reached a consensus that... We really can''t expect to know any useful information from three-year-old children. ¡­¡­ Xiao Mu listened to the report from the people around him and suddenly laughed. "The little girl is also witty." Xiao Mu said faintly, "tell the people in Los Angeles that Shi Shaoqin will start looking for someone in a carpet way at the first time... In any case, before he arrives in Los Angeles, he can''t let anyone take star away from the police station!" "Yes!" The man answered, "I''ll do it now!" Chapter 1730 Shi Shaoqin sat on the plane to Los Angeles, worried. "How could star suddenly disappear?" Shi Jue Chi asked with a wrung eyebrow. Shi Shaoqin glanced at him lightly and didn''t speak. The whole cabin suddenly became more dignified. Carney, Xiao Siyue and Qingqing didn''t speak. Qingqing can''t care about her pain now. She''s just worried about star. Star is still so young. If such a child is really taken away by someone with a heart, she can''t imagine the consequences. The so-called care is chaos. At the moment, everyone in the whole cabin is thinking... Including Shi Shaoqin. He even trembled uncontrollably because of worry. Shi Shaoqin felt a sense of uncontrollable uneasiness, as if star would go his way. After all, such a good-looking child is too easy to arouse others'' greedy mind. Why Why did he send star away? If something happens to star, he will never forgive himself. Shi Shaoqin closed his eyes and tried to hide the surging shock at the bottom of his eyes. Although clearly know that "escape" is likely to be star''s own idea, what if something unexpected happens in the process? He is only a three-year-old child. Even though he is smart, he has no way to understand the evil of the adult world. "Answer the phone." Shi Shaoqin opened his eyes and ordered. "Yes." Carney got up for the first time and let the plane answer the satellite phone. "What happened?" Shi Shaoqin asked when he was on the phone. He didn''t want to wait even for a second. The person in charge of Los Angeles said in a dignified voice, "Qin Shao, the person hasn''t been found yet..." paused, "I don''t know who interfered behind the scenes. All the stars in the airport monitoring were cleaned." Shi Shaoqin closed his eyes. "What about the woman star followed?" "Also checking." The person in charge of Los Angeles is more and more dignified. Because the surveillance was washed, whether it was a woman or star, they can say that there was no clue. The problem now is that I''m not afraid I can''t find it. I''m afraid something has happened when I find it. The other party can take star away in such a short time, and even has done so many things. It''s not easy to see the source. Because of this, the worry in everyone''s heart is even worse. Shi Shaoqin looked at the time and clearly knew that it would take more than two hours to get to Los Angeles, but he wished he had any special function and could arrive in an instant. "Shaoqin, calm down..." Shi Jue Chi gritted his teeth. "Now no matter what happens to star, you are his hope." Shi Shaoqin closed his eyes and tried to calm himself. Yes, he can''t panic now. He panicked. How can he analyze it? How can I bring star back to me Star, you can''t do anything... Stone doesn''t allow you to do anything! The plane finally landed at Los Angeles Airport. When Shi Shaoqin got off the plane, he got into the car to pick him up and listened to the people at the bottom reporting the situation during the period. "What is the basic locking range?" Shi Shaoqin asked with a cold look. "North of the city!" "North of the city?" Shi Shaoqin was slightly suspicious and answered. Two cars in front and one behind drove to the north of the city Shi Shaoqin looked at the passing street scene. His beautiful face was filled with a sense of horror. There has been no news before, but he has just arrived in Los Angeles and can locate the scope of star in the north of the city... What does this mean?! The other party''s goal is most likely him! However, star is well protected. It can be said that not many people know the relationship between star and him. So, who can know the whereabouts of him and star while monitoring the Mo palace? How many places and people in the world can do such intelligence? Shi Shaoqin took back his sight outside the window, took his mobile phone and dialed the number Xiao Mu was not surprised that Shi Shaoqin would call. After all, as long as he could calm himself down, he would guess. "What does Xiao mean?" Shi Shaoqin asked directly. Xiao Mu ''ha ha'' smiled, as if he didn''t recognize the sullen tone in Shi Shaoqin''s voice at all, but said leisurely, "give you a chance and give star a chance." Shi Shaoqin''s face was cold. "If you don''t give up star, will... Star give up you?" Xiao Mu said slowly, "some things have been decided. It''s best to think twice." "I don''t think Mr. Xiao''s purpose is to make me think twice," said Shi Shaoqin coldly, "but to fear that you still won''t get star after star returns to Gu Beichen!" After a slight meal, he said coldly, "after all, if the dragon family comes forward, it''s not good for you to brush them too much." Xiao Mu is not surprised that Shi Shaoqin knows the relationship between XK and the dragon family. If he wants star and Shi Shaoqin doesn''t know anything, he will be surprised. "Naturally, I prefer star to be with you." Xiao Mu said without hesitation, "I''m not afraid that Gu Beichen won''t give people... But that if star is around you, it will be better for XK." Shi Shaoqin didn''t say anything and hung up directly. Listening to the angry "dudududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududududu He sighed, "it''s you who don''t give up, and it''s star who doesn''t give up to you." ¡­¡­ Chengbei police station. The appearance of star makes the men and women with and without children in the police station want to take this lovely and beautiful little guy for themselves. "Star, can I take a picture with you?" Asked the little sister of a policeman. "No!" Star looked at her with bright eyes. The little sister is heartbroken. "Star, what games do you like to finish?" A policeman asked, "brother, the king is playing well. Can I teach you to play?" "How many seats can you remember for a hundred people?" Star said, "if you don''t make mistakes, I''ll play your game with you." "..." the pot covered his face, "I have a bad memory!" "Star, these are snacks bought by my aunt. What do you like to eat?" An aunt flattered and offered what she had just bought outside. Star pulled, chose one and gave his aunt a kiss. Suddenly, everyone envied, envied and hated. Ye Ziyu was a little sleepy, but he was still holding on. She looked at star and felt a little strange. Parents can''t find such a big child. Shouldn''t they be immersed in sadness? Why does star seem to be very scared when he meets her in the morning, and then go to the sadness of the police station... And then let it be?! When ye Ziyu was confused, he suddenly felt a strange smell floating in the air That feeling makes it difficult for men to breathe. Gradually, this air made all the playful people subconsciously look at the source... Shi Shaoqin stood at the door and looked at star. "Stone..." Chapter 1731 Stone?! Ye Ziyu and everyone were surprised. First he looked at star and then at Shi Shaoqin. This man is the stone in star''s mouth?! God! No wonder star looks so good With such a good-looking father, why isn''t star good-looking? Everyone looked at the jade like man, frowning and frowning. There was a sense of immortality that could only be seen from a distance and could not be blasphemed, and they forgot their reaction one after another. Star put down his snacks for the first time, rubbed off his chair and rushed to Shi Shaoqin. Shi Shaoqin''s original worries gradually dissipated when he saw star However, when he saw star running towards himself, he sank his face. Star saw that Shi Shaoqin didn''t bend over to hold him, and even his face was a little bad. His eyes gently fanned innocently, his small mouth shriveled, and soft waxy shouted, "stone..." A light call, mixed with the smell of missing and admitting mistakes. Everyone didn''t know what Shi Shaoqin thought at the moment, but they were all shouted to their hearts by the sound of star... There was a sour feeling. "Why run?" Shi Shaoqin asked in a deep voice, "don''t you know everyone will be worried?" "Stone..." star hung his head like a child who had done something wrong, and his voice was soft and distressing. Everyone stood still and looked at each other. What does this man called stone mean? If there is no problem in understanding, does it mean that... Star was not abducted by human traffickers, but the little guy ran away by himself? But if it wasn''t abducted, why did you run away? Star''s small mouth jerked and looked up at Shi Shaoqin''s sight. There was a trace of longing in his bright eyes. Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, nor did he bend over and pick up star as usual. Star doesn''t know whether Shi Shaoqin is disobedient or something... But he doesn''t want Shi to be so indifferent to him. "Stone..." star raised his small hand and gently pulled down Shi Shaoqin''s pants. His voice was soft and waxy, with the meaning of being soft. Shi Shaoqin looked at star like this and felt mixed. He is more distressed and worried than angry at the moment. He lost his calmness for the first time and came directly to Los Angeles without even thinking about anything Although star is still so small, he will have such a careful machine. He should have guessed. But he didn''t dare to think deeply at that moment... What if it wasn''t his intention?! There are a lot of people in the room. They are looking at Shi Shaoqin, who is still beautiful with a cold face, and star, who is wronged and begging for caress. Their hearts are very sour and soft. "That..." Ye Ziyu stepped forward. "Excuse me, what does star have to do with you?" Although it seems that star and this man... Well, that is, the stone in star''s mouth is correct, she still needs to make sure. Shi Shaoqin looked at Ye Ziyu indifferently, and his whole body exuded a cold breath. "Stone," star gently pulled down Shi Shaoqin''s pants, "this sister protected me and has been with star." Shi Shaoqin looked down at star again. All his anger and anxiety were suppressed when he showed weakness in his eyes. "I''ll go through the formalities first." Shi Jue Chi came forward at the right time and gently rubbed star''s small head. "Thank you, uncle Chi." Star''s voice is still soft. Soon, the procedures were in place. Star waved to the people in the police station before hugging Ye Ziyu. "Sister, star is leaving." Star has a small mouth. Ye Ziyu subconsciously looked at Shi Shaoqin and always felt a little strange. It seems that star is a little worried about something, but he obviously depends on this man. "Star," Ye Ziyu whispered after swallowing in Shi Shaoqin''s cold eyes as if to freeze her. "Are you sure this is your stone?" "Yes." Star answered. Ye Ziyu peeked at Shi Shaoqin again. "Don''t you want to go back to him?" When she saw star, she looked puzzled and whispered, "I feel you have some emotional resistance." Star lowered his eyes, twisted his small hand and said softly, "no, I wanted a stone to find me, so I deliberately ran away..." he raised his eyes and looked at Ye Ziyu, "sister, I''m sorry!" "..." Ye Ziyu pulled the corner of his mouth out of control, shook his head and said he was fine. She didn''t know why star did this, but suddenly she felt that kind of dependence on some people from the little guy. Ye Ziyu hugged star, got up, took her hand and walked to Shi Shaoqin. He tried to suppress the pressure from him before he said: "Mr. stone, children sometimes have their own emotions and willfulness, but that''s their nature, hope..." "Shut up!" Shi Shaoqin coldly interrupted Ye Ziyu. "..." Ye Ziyu grinned secretly and wished... Well, she has nothing to hate! Ye Mingyu''s eyes were not controlled by Shi Qingyu, but he didn''t have any ideas. Shi Shaoqin possessed himself, picked up star, turned and left without saying anything. Star lay on Shi Shaoqin''s shoulder and waved with Ye Ziyu. Shi juechi looked at Ye Ziyu, nodded slightly with her, and then left. On the bus to yueyahu villa, there was a nervous atmosphere in the small carriage. The driver looked at the man in the back seat from the rearview mirror. His tight handsome face could erupt into catastrophic anger at any time. Star sat quietly aside and looked at Shi Shaoqin from time to time. That way... Poor and distressing. After arriving at the crescent Lake Villa, the person in charge of Los Angeles strictly controlled the neighborhood. "Wash your hands first and have dinner later." Shi Shaoqin put down star and said. Star skillfully went to wash his hands, and then went to the restaurant with Shi Shaoqin. Someone had already prepared the meal, although star had already eaten when he was at the police station. However, the sky has darkened after such tossing and turning. The atmosphere of the restaurant was a little frozen. Shi juechi wanted to speak several times, but he could see Shi Shaoqin''s calm face and endured it after all. If star himself can''t make Shaoqin change his mind, who can make him change? Never had a silent dinner table, not like the previous relaxed and happy, more a dignified light sadness. "Stone..." star put down his spoon and looked at Shi Shaoqin sitting aside. His voice was soft and a trace of begging asked, "star wants to be with the stone. Can you not send star to his father and mother?" Shi Shaoqin''s body suddenly froze. Some things, when you do them for the first time, you will never turn back. However, the second time, you don''t have the courage for the first time Star''s eyes turned red at once. He gently pulled Shi Shaoqin''s sleeve with his small hand and said with a sour nose, "Mom and dad have brothers and sisters around, but..." the little guy''s eyes have turned red, "but there''s only star around the stone. Stone... Don''t drive star away. Star wants to accompany the stone..." Chapter 1732 Shi Shaoqin''s heart suddenly stung because of star''s words. The feeling of suffocation made him frown slightly. Shi juechi''s nose is sour. Even Carney and others can''t bear to see star at the moment. He is so young His parents have no impression on him. However, for star, Shi Shaoqin is the closest and most dependent person. Star''s eyes were red, and his eyes were wet with tears. "Stone, star wants to be with stone... Stone also wants to be with star, right?" The little guy sucked his nose and suddenly hugged Shi Shaoqin''s arm. He didn''t care if his tears and snot stained his sleeves, but said reluctantly, "star will go back to his father and mother... OK? Stone... OK?" Shi Shaoqin was still holding chopsticks. Because his hands were too stiff, he kept that position and couldn''t respond for a long time. His eyes slowly showed a complex emotion, which was a kind of reluctance, greed, fear, resistance... And extravagant emotions intertwined, which confused his heart and nerves. "Shaoqin!" Shi Jue Chi couldn''t see it anymore. "Do you really want to see star sad? Even if he returns to Beichen and Momo, he won''t be happy." Shi Shaoqin gritted his teeth and slightly clenched his chopsticks. "Stone..." star heard Shi juechi speak for him, raised his head and looked at Shi Shaoqin with tearful eyes. The little guy "planned" the escape on the plane and knew that the stone would find him. In his little heart, he decided that his stone would not give up on him. "Stone, will you let star accompany stone?" Seeing that Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak for a long time, star began to panic, "father and mother have brothers and sisters around... Star wants to be with stone!" "Qin Shao!" Kani and others can''t stand star crying and begging at the moment. They are all so uncomfortable, not to mention Qin Shao? Shi Shaoqin didn''t speak, and his hand holding chopsticks was getting tighter and tighter. After all, Shi Jue Chi also lost his temper. He put down his chopsticks and asked, "you obviously don''t want to give up star. Why do you have to send him away?" He sneered, "if you really make such a decision, why didn''t you give it at the beginning?" Shi Shaoqin twisted his eyebrows and looked at Shi juechi, and listened to him continue: "at that time, it was because of silence, but when people were in Beichen''s hands and there was a relationship between dragon and owl, did XK really have no way? Besides, Lord Xiao looked like he was going to win for Beichen or star." "Shaoqin, you can only lie to yourself... From beginning to end, you don''t want star!" "Now that star wants to stay with you, you have to send him away... Even if you suffer, you deserve it!" Shi juechi poked Shi Shaoqin''s pain because of her anger, "but why do you want star to follow you?" "He follows me, only..." "Only what?" Shi juechi interrupted Shi Shaoqin, "you coward!" Shi Shaoqin''s face suddenly turned cold. When star saw Shi Jue, Chi Xunshi Shaoqin, he looked at him discontentedly and said, "Uncle Chi, don''t you say stone!" As he spoke, his eyes stared like small animals. "See?" Shi Juxi looked at Shi Shaoqin with a sneer. "Star is so young that he knows to protect you... Even if he knows I''m your brother! But what about you?" "Because of your demons, you will hurt star..." Shi Jue Chi gritted his teeth. "This is your so-called pet? What you say is the best for star?" The voice of questioning made Shi Shaoqin speechless to refute. Star looked at Shi Shaoqin timidly. His small mouth was tight, and tears filled his bright eyes. Shi Shaoqin tilted his head, looked at star''s poor appearance, and gradually wrung his eyebrows. "Star," his voice was a little dull, "if you don''t come back this time, I won''t take the initiative to send you back!" "Star wants to be around the stone..." star''s voice is soft and waxy, but it is firm. Shi Shaoqin looked at the little guy like this. His persistence collapsed in an instant and held the little guy in his arms. Star hugged Shi Shaoqin''s neck and burst into tears. His voice choked and said, "no stone is allowed to stop star... Star will also be sad and sad!" "Good!" Shi Shaoqin answered softly. With tears flashing, Star asked with certainty, "really?" "Well..." One big and one small, as if they were just relying on each other at the moment. Qingqing and Xiao Siyue have covered their mouths and are crying. They love star and qinshao. "Star must be a warm child in the future..." Carney''s eyes are a little red and his voice said gently. "As long as he is an important person in his life, I''m afraid he will love more than life!" Qingqing and Xiao Siyue both looked at Kani, who was talking, and felt this way one after another. After all, star, who is only three years old, has been so warm Star is really warm in the future. However, one of the prerequisites they ignore most at the moment... The warm object is the need to be the most important person in his life. Growing up in Mogong, I finally went to XK''s star. In the end, because of the environment, I polished him into a seemingly gentle and flawless man... But in fact, for irrelevant people, those cloud shaking hands have already turned my heart cold. It''s not easy to cover this cold heart and become someone he loves more than life? Shi Shaoqin left Los Angeles with star the next day. Instead of returning to Mo palace, they took star on a journey without a destination, but with a foundation for star''s life. This groundbreaking is not only language, but also humanistic contact The growth of an excellent person is never limited to the people and things around him. ¡­¡­ Huakang hospital. "Which department are you going to go to?" Li Yunze put a glass of water in front of Zhang Nian. Zhang Nian smiled and shook his head. "I can..." paused. "I''m already very happy to be back to work." She knew that it was because Chu Zixiao came back to Huakang to continue to work. That night, they drank coffee very late. They no longer had the same history. They exchanged light news and some interesting things... The feelings ending in love may be deceptive to outsiders, but they felt comfortable with each other. Without past gratitude and resentment, they are the most familiar strangers and the most strange confidants. He mentioned work, and she seemed to have no reason to refuse. "Just go to the chest and lungs!" Li Yunze thought for a moment and said, "there needs more meticulous nurses over there." Li Yunze knows Zhang Nian''s ability. Apart from opening the back door to let her come back, there is nothing unsatisfying about this woman. "OK." Zhang Nian answered. "Prepare these days and start work next Monday." "OK." Zhang Nian nodded and got up. "Li Shao, if there''s nothing else, I''ll go first." "Yes." Li Yunze answered faintly. After Zhang Nian left, he called Chu Zixiao, "Zixiao, do you still have an idea about Zhang Nian?" Chapter 1733 Chu Zi Xiao stood at the window of the office of the law office, looking at the blooming flower of the Wutong tree. After lifting the coffee in his hand and drinking it, he put the coffee cup on the window sill and said, "what is not a fake?" "Yes." Li Yunze can understand. After all, love is really a tormenting thing that people can''t give up. "However, she is well... That is all right!" Chu Zi Xiao lifted her eyes and fell again on the Wutong flower. Li Yunze sighed and knew in his heart that such love and hate were worried inside. If he didn''t love each other deeply at the beginning, it would be difficult to cross over. "How are you and Yining getting ready for their wedding?" Chu Zixiao changed the subject. "Basically, it doesn''t take me and Yining to worry about. The venue is all made by Chen Yu and Jinxi." Li Yunze said with a smile, "I''m also happy to relax. I take a walk with Yining every day." Chu Zixiao was a little silent and said with emotion, "it''s really good......" after a pause, he continued, "now I can remember those things about Yining and you before." Li Yunze smiled happily and happily. If it used to be angry, why would you rather do it to him, now thinking of those has become the most precious memory. ¡­¡­ It was the weekend. Zhang Nian first went to the supermarket to supply some things for his family, and then planned to go to the appointment of the classmate party. After graduation, because of the emergency of Zhangjia and her mother''s body, she attended the classmate party for the first time. "Nian Nian, do you have a boyfriend?" On the phone, Luo Qingya from Zhang Nian''s dormitory asked. "No." Zhang Nian closed the door with a smile and said while walking to the stairs, "besides, I''ll take a boyfriend over. Aren''t you a single Wang ignored?" "Go, who told you I didn''t have a boyfriend?" Luo Qingya was dissatisfied. After laughing with Zhang Nian, he asked, "by the way, did you come back this time to look for a new job?" "Return to Huakang and go on Monday..." Zhang Nian didn''t finish his words. He happened to see Qiao Jinnian standing in the middle of the stairs at the corner of the stairs. For a moment, she was stunned in situ until Luo Qingya''s voice came over the phone. "I met an acquaintance. Let''s meet and talk later!" "OK..." Luo Qingya answered, "I''ll see you in the restaurant." "Yes." Zhang Nian hung up the phone, looked at Qiao Jinnian''s eyes slightly covered with red blood and frowned, "senior, how did you come here?" Qiao Jinnian said "ha ha" and his eyes were full of disappointment when he just heard Zhang Nian''s words, "so this is your purpose?" "Huh?" Zhang Nian frowned puzzled and looked at Qiao Jinnian with complete doubt. Qiao Jinnian''s eyes were gradually infected with anger. He approached step by step and blocked Zhang Nian on the platform at the corner of two stairs. Zhang Nian''s eyebrows wrinkled and tightened. Forced by Qiao Jinnian, he subconsciously retreated to the wall. "Senior student?" Zhang Nian was overwhelmed by Qiao Jinnian, who was so surly that he didn''t know what was wrong with him. "Have you just been on duty?" Qiao Jinnian didn''t answer her, but asked with gnashing of teeth: "don''t be with me because I can''t do what Chu Zixiao can give you, can''t I?" "Senior, what are you talking about?" Zhang Nian frowned. When Qiao Jinnian was approaching again, he raised his hand subconsciously against him. Zhang Nian''s action undoubtedly made Qiao Jinnian more and more angry. "Xiao Nian, even if I can''t give you a good life like Chu Zixiao..." Qiao Jinnian said with a slight stare, "but I can also make you live well... Do you have to be with the enemy who ruined your family?" "Senior, calm down!" Zhang Nian pushed Qiao Jinnian away with great strength. "I don''t understand what you said, but can you stop it?" "How am I?" Qiao Jinnian raised his hand and caught Zhang Nian''s shoulder blade. "Can Chu Zixiao do anything to you! But I can''t do it?" Zhang Nian was pinched by Qiao Jinnian and wanted to hold her hand. However, his strength was too strong to hold it at all. "Xiaonian, aren''t you afraid of nightmares when you are with Chu Zixiao?" Qiao Jinnian''s eyes became scarlet, "just because he can let you go to Huakang, just because he can give you what you want, are you cheap to forget, the death of your parents and the downfall of your family, all because of him?" Zhang Nian looked at Qiao Jinnian in amazement. Obviously, he didn''t expect that he would say such ugly words to her. "Why, can''t you refute it?" Qiao Jinnian gritted his teeth. "Tell me what you can''t love... You won''t be with him... It''s all fake!" "You just want to escape your dislike of yourself and pretend that you have to follow him..." Qiao Jinnian said more and more, and his breath became heavier. "From beginning to end, in fact, you didn''t want to leave him... You just paralyzed yourself and fell in love with him to enjoy the joy of your body and heart, right?" "Qiao Jinnian, you''ve had enough!" Zhang Nian was finally furious. Originally, because of the previous care, even if Qiao Jinnian just said ugly words, she also endured it. However, the constant slander made Zhang Nian feel suffocating pain in his heart. "I''ve had enough? Ha ha..." Qiao Jinnian sneered. "That night, you got on his car, did you sleep with him again? Did you? So, you can go to work in Huakang again?" Zhang Nian''s face became ugly. He even didn''t care that they would be heard or seen in the corridor With great strength, she pushed Qiao Jinnian away and waved it with a slap. "Qiao Jinnian, no matter what I do with him, what qualifications do you have to say that about me?" Zhang Nian''s body trembled, and his eyes were filled with disappointment under panic and fear of Qiao Jinnian''s so hurt. Obviously, the senior is a gentle person. But... He said such words to her and made such unbearable predictions. Qiao Jinnian had a burning pain on his face, which made his blood imprisoned by evil spirits. He slowly moved his face and looked at Zhang Nian with scarlet eyes. Zhang Nian was suddenly afraid of Qiao Jinnian, which was instinctive. Subconsciously, Zhang Nian wanted to escape However, before moving, the man was suddenly pressed back to the wall by Qiao Jinnian. "Ah!" Zhang Nian screamed, only feeling that his back was hurt by the chrome on the windowsill. Before she could taste the sting, Yu Guang saw Qiao Jinnian suddenly press over Subconsciously, Qiao Jinnian, who had come straight to her lips, kissed her cheek. "Let go of me..." Zhang Nian struggled in panic, but he couldn''t get rid of Qiao Jinnian''s hand in anger. Qiao Jinnian was just like crazy. He imprisoned Zhang Nian and forgot where it was. His lips had fallen on Zhang Nian''s neck... All the way down! Chapter 1734 "How did Chu Zixiao kiss you? Huh?" Qiao Jinnian was just like crazy. Zhang Nian said in her mind that she gave Chu Zixiao the words for the first time, "has he worshipped every skin on your body? Ah?!" "Let go, let go of me..." Zhang Nian kept struggling. The feeling of humiliation made her want to vomit. Strange to say, I don''t know whether it''s because of the weekend or something No one walked in the corridor today. Zhang Nian''s body trembled with surprise. Because she couldn''t get rid of it, she didn''t care to be seen at the moment. She just wanted to shout and hope that some neighbors could come out to help her. Unfortunately, she was discovered by Qiao Jinnian before she could shout His lips, mercilessly blocked her! "Uh... Uh... Uh..." Zhang Nian clenched his teeth to prevent Qiao Jinnian from further exploring. However, Zhang Nian''s resistance aroused Qiao Jinnian''s animal bath. "Do you only like Chu Zixiao touching you? Do you?" Qiao Jinnian seemed to release those unbearable love. Because he couldn''t get it, he was suddenly blackened into hostility. "Zhang Nian said you also have thoughts for me... I don''t care if you gave Chu Zixiao for the first time. We can be together... Xiao Nian, you just feel guilty for me and don''t want to be with me, right?" "Let... Uh... Let go of me..." Zhang Nian''s eyes gradually filled with tears of humiliation. She didn''t expect that Qiao Jinnian would treat her like this after saying such ugly words. Qiao Jinnian immediately opened Zhang Nian''s tightly closed lips and said angrily in his eyes, "I won''t let you go... I let you go too much, so you will lose yourself and get together with Chu Zixiao." Zhang Nian''s eyes are more and more incredible. She never thought that a man who had helped her so much would become so. "Qiao Jinnian, who are you and who did I get together..." "But he is the culprit of your family''s destruction!" Qiao Jinnian gnashed his teeth and interrupted Zhang Nian. I don''t know if it''s something that people don''t want to be heard in their subconscious mind, or what someone wants to stop because of how to come out... Qiao Jinnian instinctively lowered his voice. Zhang Nian''s body kept trembling and looked at Qiao Jinnian in horror. She knew that Qiao Jinnian should not be angered at the moment, which would only make him more crazy However, some things can''t be controlled at all. "Qiao Jinnian, you''ve had enough!" Zhang Nian roared, "whether I will be with Chu Zixiao or not, I will not be with you..." "You lie! You''re not with me because you''re with Chu Zixiao, aren''t you?" Qiao Jinnian forgot to keep his voice down after all. "I don''t want to give myself peace of mind when I say so many reasons!" "Yes, I just want to give myself peace of mind. Can you control it?" Zhang Nian was aroused all his anger, "I''m with Chu Zixiao. I like to be with the man who killed my family. What''s the matter with you..." Zhang Nian''s words were not finished, but was interrupted by a crisp sound of "pa". Qiao Jinnian suddenly widened his eyes in horror. Zhang Nian''s face was hit to one side, and the corners of his mouth were skinned by his teeth. The air seemed to be frozen in an instant. The suffocating feeling that people were about to die made people''s nerves break. "Xiao Nian, I..." "Just in time, we don''t owe each other." Zhang Nian''s eyes were filled with stubborn tears, and the corners of his mouth were full of a tragic smile. "I hit you, you hit me... It''s fair!" His face was full of burning pain, but such pain could not resist the pain from his heart at the moment. Her eyes became more and more red, but she could hardly bear it. Qiao Jinnian was completely frightened in his eyes. It seemed that at this moment, he just reacted. What did he just do?! "Xiao Nian, i... I didn''t mean to hit you! I... um!" When Qiao Jinnian wanted to explain, he was suddenly held by someone and was stopped by a fist in the face. The unexpected person made Qiao Jinnian and Zhang Nian forget their reaction for a while. Chu Zixiao stood there angrily, with a bloodthirsty light in his eyes. After looking at Qiao Jinnian, he looked at Zhang Nian, "are you okay?" Xu is a sudden concern, Xu is that all the strength has endured to the end... Or, the inner fragility finally collapses. Zhang Nian burst into tears while Chu Zixiao asked. The hot tears ran across the hot cheeks, which was a kind of pricking pain. Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian painfully. When she drank coffee that night, she still talked about her life and dream calmly. But at this moment, she was just a little woman who was hurt. Uncontrollably, Chu Zixiao took Zhang Nian into his arms and stroked her back with his big palm in an attempt to comfort her. Qiao Jinnian was just hit by Chu Zixiao and fell to the ground. When I got up at the moment, I saw Chu Zixiao holding Zhang Nian, and Zhang niansi didn''t struggle. The guilty heart originally for beating her was replaced by anger in an instant. "Ha ha!" Qiao Jinnian wiped the blood on the corner of his mouth, "Zhang Nian, it turns out that you and Chu Zixiao are really together... Pretending to be so fucking innocent that people think you are. You don''t even care about your parents in order to be with him... Huh!" "Ah!" Chu Zixiao was really angry and kicked Qiao Jinnian to stop his ugly words. Zhang Nian exclaimed, feeling sad. Looking at Qiao Jinnian''s sight, it became complicated. As if afraid, as if sympathetic. Chu Zixiao felt that the person in her arms was shaking violently. Looking at the redness and swelling on Zhang Nian''s cheek and the embarrassment on her mouth, she immediately let go of her with anger, came forward angrily, grabbed Qiao Jinnian''s collar and put him against the wall "Qiao Jinnian, are you human?" Chu Zixiao said and punched Qiao Jinnian in the abdomen, "is this what you call love?" He was furious and said, "if you really love her, you shouldn''t hurt her!" "I hurt her?" Qiao Jinnian finally found a chance to fight back, "what about you? Didn''t you hurt her? But she doesn''t want to go to bed with you... Huh!" Qiao Jinnian is just a doctor in the end. Compared with Chu Zixiao, who grew up in a rich family and involved in all aspects of childhood, he is not an opponent at all. Zhang Nian''s tears kept falling. Originally, he wanted to open Chu Zixiao, but after Qiao Jinnian said "go to bed", his body took time to lean against the wall. Chu Zixiao is also crazy. He punches Qiao Jinnian in the face "Chu Zixiao, I won''t let you go." Qiao Jinnian collapsed to the ground. "I''m a doctor. I want to examine the injury... I''ll kill you!" Chu Zixiao looked down at Qiao Jinnian sitting on the ground and sneered, "you seem to have forgotten... I''m a lawyer!" Chapter 1735 The air was frozen, and some footsteps seemed to have retreated back. In today''s society, it is the instinct of many people to be alone. No one wants to get into trouble. Chu Zixiao looked coldly at Qiao Jinnian on the ground, ignored him and turned to Zhang Nian. Although he was angry, he still knew the weight of his men. Qiao Jinnian looked as if he had been beaten badly, but he could only rest for a few days at most. He took the crying Zhang Nian into his arms and comforted her gently. Chu Zixiao let go of her and said, "I''ll take you to apply your face." Zhang Nian really needed to leave, crying and nodding. Chu Zixiao took Zhang Nian''s shoulder and wanted to go downstairs. However, when Zhang Nian looked at Qiao Jinnian with complex emotions in his hazy vision, his eyes were full of heartache and guilt. The cause of everything is him. If it weren''t for him, Zhang Nian would still be the girl who simply but happily adheres to her dream in Huakang "Zhang Nian," said Qiao Jinnian, who was about to step down the stairs with scarlet eyes. Zhang Nian, who was held by Chu Zixiao on his shoulder, felt remorse and guilt at the bottom of his eyes, but was replaced by anger and jealousy. "Can you feel at ease when you are with Chu Zixiao?" Zhang Nian''s body suddenly stiffened, and his mouth trembled. She wanted to say that she was not with Chu Zixiao. But in the end, I don''t want to explain Is your explanation useful when someone thinks too much of you? Just a cover up?! Chu Zixiao stopped, and the bottom of his eyes was shrouded in a thick haze. Qiao Jinnian gnawed his teeth and looked at the two people who stopped. His eyes flashed a touch of pride under the sneer. "Qiao Jinnian, do you just want to follow my old path?" Chu Zixiao glanced sideways at Qiao Jinnian. Knowing that he also saw it, he continued, "Congratulations, you''ve done a very successful job." Qiao Jinnian gnashed his teeth, and there was anger in the bottom of his eyes. Chu Zixiao took back his sight and said coldly, "it''s not good to leave beauty and gratitude and have a place in Zhang Nian''s heart?" He looked at Qiao Jinnian again and said in a colder voice, "you have to hurt and insult her like this... Won''t you feel hurt and regret when you think about it later?" Chu Zixiao seemed unwilling to say anything more and left with Zhang Nian. Qiao Jinnian stood up and looked at the back of Chu Zixiao and Zhang Nian leaving, gnashing his teeth and wiping the blood on the corners of his mouth... Looking at the place where they left, his eyes were covered with jealousy. ¡­¡­ Chu Zixiao opened the co pilot''s door and closed the door to the driver''s seat after Zhang Nian went up. He glanced at Zhang Nian with drooping eyes and crying all the time. The pain of being gouged out in his heart made him swallow what he wanted to say. He attached himself to Zhang Nian and fastened his seat belt. Chu Zixiao took out his mobile phone and sent a message to Tang Yu. After that, he started the car and left the community. Driving on the road, Chu Zixiao glanced at Zhang Nian outside the window and said, "your face needs to be dealt with. If you don''t mind, go to my house to deal with it..." he said slightly, "if you don''t want to go there, find a clinic?" "Go to your place!" Zhang Nian bit his lower lip and tried not to let his emotions leak too much. Chu Zixiao knew that she was in an unstable mood and was afraid of losing her temper outside... That''s why he suggested going to him. When he arrived at Chu Zixiao''s apartment, he sent a message to Li Yunze asking if he would deal with being beaten and swollen. After Li Yunze gave the method, he didn''t forget to tease Chu Zixiao and asked if he was beaten by those "unjust cases" he dealt with on the weekend. Chu Zixiao was not in the mood to joke with Li Yunze at the moment, but went to deal with the swelling on Zhang Nian''s face according to the method he gave. "Xiaonian, you..." Chu Zixiao just opened his mouth, and Zhang Nian''s mobile phone rang. Zhang Nian took it out and saw that it was Luo Qingya. He picked it up at the corner of his mouth, "Qingya..." "Nian Nian, why haven''t you arrived yet?" Zhang Nian lowered her eyes and said in a voice: "Qingya, I don''t think I can get through... I had an accident here." "Ah? You''re not coming again?" Luo Qingya sighed with disappointment, "what''s the matter? Didn''t she just go out? Why didn''t she suddenly come again?" Zhang Nian was silent. After taking a breath, he said, "I''m sorry. Please say sorry for me and my classmates... I''ll invite you to dinner later." Luo Qingya heard the faint choking sound in Zhang Nian''s voice. She opened her mouth to say something, and finally answered, "OK." "Read aloud, are you all right?" "I''m fine." Zhang Nian pulled at the corner of his mouth, "well... I have something else here. Let''s talk later." "OK." Luo Qingya answered, "take good care of yourself." "Yes." Zhang Nian said nothing more. After saying goodbye to each other, she hung up the phone. Chu Zixiao looked at the time. It was almost noon. "What would you like to eat, order some takeout, or boil some porridge?" "How did you get there then?" Zhang Nian asked. Chu Zixiao''s face was slightly embarrassed. "In fact, he wants to go to the opposite community to ask about the case, but he doesn''t know how... When the car gets there, he will come into your community." Zhang Nian looked at Chu Zixiao. Maybe he was too embarrassed and his face was a little red. "Later, he came in and simply wanted to come and see you." Then he hurriedly explained, "in fact, I didn''t want to disturb you. I just thought that maybe when I went up, you were just going downstairs to throw garbage or something, and I could just meet..." Zhang Nianzhe lips, listen to Chu Zixiao say so, and see the embarrassment on his face, if not at the moment the mood is really depressed, it is estimated that she can laugh. "Now think about it. Fortunately, if you want to meet by chance, you''ll go up..." Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian''s swollen cheek uncontrollably, and felt a little uncomfortable. Zhang Nian subconsciously stroked his swollen cheek with a faint burning feeling, took a deep breath and said, "you''re still busy. It''s taking you so long. Go ahead. I just held my breath for a while. It''s better now..." "Zhang Nian!" Chu Zixiao frowned, some self reproach words came to his mouth, endured it, sighed and said, "I''ve let ah Yu pass. Anyway, it''s going to noon. If you don''t eat, I also need to eat." Zhang Nian is a little guilty. She is not in the mood to cook at the moment. It seems that Chu Zixiao is not very good at cooking. Finally, she can only ask for takeout to eat. "Xiao Nian, have you ever thought about living in another place?" Chu Zixiao poured Zhang Nian a glass of water and asked. Zhang Nian tugged at the corners of his mouth and shook his head sadly. Qiao Jinnian will be like this today. She is really a little afraid... But at present, she has no conditions to change places. Chapter 1736 "In a community near Huakang, there is a small apartment for me. Would you like to live there for a while?" Seeing that Zhang Nian wanted to refuse, Chu Zixiao hurriedly said, "Xiao Nian, I don''t mean anything else... Me," he paused and said astringently, "I just want you to live well..." Zhang Nian originally wanted to refuse, because Chu Zixiao''s expression at the moment can''t go on. She closed her mouth tightly. For a moment, she didn''t know what to say. It''s false to say you''re not afraid of Qiao Jinnian looking for her again. However, she doesn''t want to burden the relationship between her and Chu Zixiao. "You don''t have a burden..." Sharp lawyers can always know some information from each other''s subtle expressions at the first time. Moreover, Zhang Nian is not a person who will hide himself. "You know, people like us will go to dispose of real estate, sometimes for convenience, sometimes just want to change places to live, you can change at any time..." Chu Zixiao said. "I don''t live there, and it''s empty. You go and live for a while, and then move when you want to move..." Zhang Nian looked at Chu Zixiao and knew that what he said was true, but he couldn''t agree. "Xiao Nian, if you help me look after the house, I won''t ask the housekeeping over there." Chu Zixiao sighed, "if you really don''t want to live for no reason, you can give me the rent... Friendship price, just give the rent of the house you live in now." Zhang Nian knew that Chu Zixiao was a little anxious at the moment, and it was also the biggest concession. In addition, I was really afraid of Qiao Jinnian to do it again, and didn''t want to make the relationship with Chu Zixiao more and more deliberate. Finally, I nodded. Seeing Zhang Nian let go, Chu Zixiao immediately smiled happily, took out his mobile phone, called someone who didn''t know, and asked him to clean the house and buy some daily necessities. The takeout will arrive soon. They are chatting and eating. Chu Zixiao was suddenly a little unkind, and felt that Qiao Jinnian had given him a bargain today. No matter what the relationship with Zhang Nian is in the future, it turns out that he is also happy to get along with her more for a while. Just after dinner, Chu Zixiao received a message. After reading it, he smiled and said, "the house has been cleaned. Do you want to go and have a look?" Zhang Nian nodded. Chu Zixiao drove Zhang Nian to the community. Everything was intelligent from entering the door. "I''ll take you to the property to enter the information first." Chu Zixiao said. When entering the community, Zhang Nian knew the height of the community. Except for special certificates, it seems that you need to brush your fingerprint to enter the community... Otherwise, you can only use the visitor doorbell. Zhang Nian vaguely felt as if it was a bit of a coincidence. Because of Qiao Jinnian, Chu Zixiao said that he had a small apartment near Huakang, but the management of the apartment was very intelligent... It can be said that Qiao Jinnian could only block her in public in the future. Joe won''t do anything too much under the circumstances of Jinnian. "That..." Zhang Nian looked at everything new in the house and frowned slightly. "Huh?" Chu Zixiao set the password of the password lock, looked at Zhang Nian, saw that she didn''t continue to say, and asked, "what''s the matter?" "Is this your idle apartment?" Zhang Nian looked at Chu Zixiao, "it doesn''t look like someone has been here." "Yes, I haven''t lived since I bought it." Chu Zixiao said casually, half true and half false. The house was arranged by phone at that time, and he did buy it... He didn''t live in it! It''s not a lie. Zhang Nian looked at Chu Zixiao. Chu Zixiao smiled at her and said the password after pressing "OK" on the password lock. "You don''t have any burden, just like that. Just be safe." When Chu Zixiao said this, he looked at Zhang Nian subconsciously. He was surprised and detumescence, but his cheek with finger marks was slightly distressed and collected his emotions. "Thank you." Zhang Nian opened his mouth gently. Chu Zixiao just smiled and accepted her thanks. After all, they are not in a relationship that doesn''t need thanks. "There is a life supermarket in the community. Everything is more convenient..." Chu Zixiao looked at the time. "I''ll go first. I''ll pick you up tomorrow." "Yes." Zhang Nian answered and thanked Chu Zixiao for his hesitation. Chu Zixiao left and stood in front of the elevator waiting for the elevator. He looked at the closed door of the small apartment and smiled at the corner of his mouth. Don''t ask for later, just hope to have some compensation for her Momo is right. Sometimes love doesn''t have to be together. As long as you know it''s safe, it''s good! ¡­¡­ Li Yunze put the prepared nutritious meal in front of he Yining. Seeing her smiling at her mobile phone, Li Yunze asked, "what''s a fool''s pleasure?" "Make complaints about the Tucao." He Yining put down his mobile phone, took the soup bowl handed over by Li Yunze and said, "now the two brothers of the Huo family have made her head big." "I think she enjoys it." Li Yunze said, "the operation assessment has passed, and the love career has a good harvest. It''s going well." "It''s better to go with the wind and the water," he Ning said. "If we fight for 20 years, I''d rather make a quick decision in the scorching heat." "I''m afraid it will be unsatisfactory." Li Yunze said casually. "I think you are jealous." Why rather wrinkled his nose, "it''s still red fruit." "Yes, yes, I envy her..." Li Yunze said, looking at why Ning smiled. "I envy her that she has a best friend like you." He Yining was stunned at first, and then he smiled, "Li Yunze, why is your mouth so sweet?" "Because..." Li Yunze leaned over slightly, regardless of whether they were in the hospital restaurant, and said vaguely, "... You put a layer of honey on me in the morning." He Yining''s face turned red at once. "Not serious!" Why should I rather hum, but my heart is more and more happy. This man was hindering her first pregnancy and couldn''t make big moves... Finally, she had to comfort him. This man was not enough, so he trapped her in bed and kissed her all over. At the thought of the hot scene in the morning, why Ning''s face turned more red. "What color do you want?" Li Yunze joked. He Yining stared angrily, angry that the man clearly thought of it first, but pushed it clean. Li Yunze now particularly likes to see why she looks rather charming and angry, because she usually looks like an atmosphere, but she can always show her little daughter''s posture in front of him. Why did Ning wrinkle his nose? When Li Yunze handed her the dishes, he put out the bowl and asked, "when will brother Nanhe and long come?" Chapter 1737 "Boss long and warm will be back in Los Angeles in a few days," Li Yunze said with a smile. "It''s south. It''s estimated that we can''t come back until one or two days before our wedding." "Oh..." why would Ning curl his lips, "he didn''t take care of getting together when he came back for the new year." "Well, when he comes back this time, you are in good health and can get together more." Li Yunze said thoughtfully. He Yining and Li Yunze smiled at each other and continued to eat. When a man gives all his tenderness to a woman, that woman gets the whole world. Women have never had such great ambitions. From birth to the end... In fact, all they want is a man''s unique gentle doting. He Yining is thinking that even if she chased Li Yunze for 20 years... Now she gets it, she is lucky, isn''t she?! He Yining thought that the rice in his mouth seemed to be sweet. The hand without chopsticks gently stroked her stomach, which was only slightly visible. The feeling of satisfaction in her heart made her whole person glow with a charming temperament Li Yunze looked at her and forgot to continue eating for a moment. "Silly rather," Li Yunze said foolishly, "did I tell you that you are beautiful?" "..." why did Ning Leng look at Li Yunze. Li Yunze smiled. "I can''t imagine that the crazy girl in the past can be beautiful quietly now." He Yining glared angrily at Li Yunze and was dissatisfied with his praise. "You mean, I''m beautiful only when I''m quiet?" "No, it''s the most beautiful. It''s beautiful all the time." Li Yunze raised his eyebrows and indicated why he would rather eat quickly. He Yining touched his stomach again and felt the child''s breath. While eating, he said, "one is the first, so it''s called one, two, two and three. Is that what you call it?" She looked at Li Yunze. "It''s a little strange." "Yes." Li Yunze said casually, "it''s just small two and small three!" "..." why did Ning take a puff at the corner of his mouth, "Xiao Er is OK... Are you sure the small one is called Xiao San?" "What''s the matter?" Li Yunze didn''t react for a moment. "Ha ha!" Why do you rather turn your eyes, "if the third child is a boy, even if it is a girl... Don''t you think it''s inappropriate for the third child to cry all day?" Li Yunze understood what he Yining meant, was stunned, and then smiled. "You still laugh!" Why rather stare. "When you say this, it reminds me of the name of the child in Beichen''s family that day." Li Yunze said with a smile, "Xiao Jie is now called Gu Yan, but he was called Jian Jie before..." "Yes." "Then, j is called Jian Yao!" Li Yunze gave why Ning a dish. "There are two names of Yan and Yan, one is Gu Xi and the other is simple... Simplicity is made by Jane Moqi." He Yining nodded. "It''s all very nice..." she asked with some confusion, "what''s the problem?" "Beichen said that Jian Mo''s name is very genius." Li Yunze smiled and dipped his fingers into the water. While writing on the table, he said, "concise, brief, simple... Simple and concise!" He Yining then reacted, ''poof Pooh'' laughed, "you name it. I really can''t see it''s from people with high IQ." "Jane Morse sometimes wants face. Although he doesn''t think much about it subconsciously, he is also very hard spoken when he is put forward by Beichen." Li Yunze took out the meal paper and wiped the water on the table. "She argued that she just wanted to make their life simple and happy... This is the best moral." "There''s nothing wrong." Why rather pick eyebrows, "I also hope my children are simple and happy." As she said this, she stroked her stomach again. When she looked down, the corners of her mouth were smiling. Parents naturally want their children to be smooth for a lifetime However, how many roads of life can be truly smooth and not bumpy? Everyone''s life is rugged, but... According to people''s character and the way of dealing with things, it is a question of whether there are more or less rugged roads. At this moment, he Yining, who is looking forward to the birth of the dragon and Phoenix fetus, doesn''t know yet. After a period of fetal examination... It''s a greater surprise for her. ¡­¡­ Jin shaosi stood in the vineyard with his trousers pocket in his hands. The whole vineyard was filled with the aroma of grapes, with a sweet flavor in the fragrance, which was a great temptation for winemakers. Workers are picking some grapes that are already suitable for wine making, black, red, green, white... Baskets of grapes of various colors, charming and confusing. "Shiraz and Pinot Noir, taste it." Tan Zhonglang handed the two grape varieties to Jin shaosi. After tasting it, Jin shaosi frowned slightly and looked at Tan Zhonglang with doubts. Tan Zhonglang nodded and sighed: "Pinot Noir is completely wasted this time... If the temperature control and soil acidity and alkalinity are not reached, the taste is poor." Obviously, they planned to launch a batch of limited wine this year. Now they will succeed in planting a batch of Pinot Noir. "As for Shiraz..." Jin shaosi sighed lightly, "this year''s output will also be reduced due to the climate." Jin shaosi''s vision falls on the place where Shiraz and Pinot Noir are specially cultivated. Large tracts of grapes are still attractive from the appearance "Then run aground first!" Jin shaosi youyou said, "even if he''s winery can''t be among the top five in the world, I want it to have a certain position in the world''s red wine industry." Tan Zhonglang nodded without refutation. This is not only the wish of the master, but also a gift from shaosi to the young lady. Just Tan Zhonglang looked across the vineyard, looked at the place to be the wedding site, and sighed. Go around, on and off... Miss has finished her dream in the end. No matter how many clouds have passed in the past, I want to come... The spirit of the Lord and wife in heaven is also happy. The vineyard came back, and her favorite daughter married Li Yunze and had children Thinking of this, Tan Zhonglang suddenly felt a little astringent. He hasn''t seen Qu Weiwei for a long time. It''s not because he doesn''t want to go, but because he''s afraid to go. Some people have nothing to do with her... It''s just that for someone, she is special. Los Angeles prison. Qu Weiwei stood in the yard with a big broom in her hand. The dust around her became particularly clear in the sun. She looked up slightly at the sun on the high wall and gradually lost her mind. "Ah!" Suddenly, Qu Weiwei was hit by someone. Because of the previous car accident, she couldn''t bear the strength of her legs, and the whole person fell to the ground Coincidentally, it was just buried on a pile of garbage. Chapter 1738 Qu Weiwei''s breath began to be unstable. Her nose and mouth were full of dust, which made her feel uncomfortable. His ears were full of laughter, mixed with the stop sound of the prison guard ha-ha! Qu Weiwei seems to be used to such "unintentional" behavior, but she doesn''t seem to be used to it. How can you get used to it? She clearly has a great time, but it''s all because of why Yining. Someone squatted down beside her, and even someone kicked her with his foot... Qu Weiwei didn''t move, only full of anger. "Hey, don''t pretend to be dead, get up..." Wang Xia kicked again. "Don''t think you pretend to be dead, we''ll help you in your area... Get up quickly." Qu Weiwei took a breath and climbed up slowly Everyone looked at her and saw that she looked ashen, and immediately ''ha ha'' laughed. "What are you doing? What are you doing? Hurry to work..." the prison guard shouted at the right time. "Do you want to be locked up without food in order to reform through labor?" Wang Xia looked at Qu Weiwei and stared at herself. She came forward and patted her face with the palm of some meat. Because her men didn''t stop, they could still hear the sound of "pa pa". "Very angry?" Wang Xia leaned over slightly and said with a quiet smile, "why don''t you hit me?" Qu Weiwei''s hand was tightly clenched, and she tried her best to bear it. "Right!" Wang Xia smiled and withdrew her hand. "It''s necessary to keep the appearance of wanting to hit people again, but knowing that she has no ability... In this way, it''s interesting." Wang Xia saw the prison guard come over, glanced and said slowly, "by the way, I heard that some days, in order to make everyone feel that the world is full of love, the prison made a documentary... I think that theme is too suitable for you. You can look forward to it." Then she spit and turned around with a sneer. "Let''s work quickly. It''s time for dinner. I don''t want to be hungry." Everyone laughed and dispersed in a crowd. When they went to do their own work, they inadvertently looked at Qu Weiwei standing in place... There was no sympathy in their eyes, only boredom for recreation. ¡­¡­ Time, the twinkling of an eye to the beginning of autumn. Li Jinxi looked at the wedding scene arranged by himself and raised her eyebrows with satisfaction. Hejia''s vineyard, this is heyining''s home. Putting the wedding of he Yining and Li Yunze here is not only to let he Tianshu and Meng Ya "see" their daughter''s happiness, but also to tell he Yining that Li Yunze has put down Li Yunhao''s affairs. Although Li Jinxi didn''t know the other purpose of Li Yunze''s request to be here. The dead are dead. It''s hard to tell who''s right and who''s wrong. Cherish the present is the most important thing, isn''t it? Although the words are simple, how many people in this world can do it? "Mr. Li, this is the effect picture of the bouquet on the wedding day..." the assistant came and handed the effect picture taken from the florist to Li Jinxi. Li Jinxi looked at it carefully and compared it with the place where he had made the framework of the wedding scene. After confirming that there was no problem, he nodded. The red wine on the wedding day will be provided by Ho''s winery. Flowers are specially provided by a flower gift direct supply store of Huaye. Everything is arranged in combination with the love between Li Yunze and he Yining Including champagne roses and bright red roses, which will spell ''1 + 1 = 1'' on the wedding set. When the mobile phone rang in time, Li Jinxi took it out. Seeing that it was Chen Yu, he smiled and answered, "my preliminary setup here is over..." "Shall I pick you up?" Chen asked. "I drove here," Li Jinxi looked at the time, "go straight to Dad!" "OK." Chen Yu answered and hung up after Li Jinxi hung up. Li Jinxi explained some things to the assistant before leaving the vineyard. There are three days left for Li Yunze and he Yining''s wedding. Now, not only the people around us can''t wait, but also the media are ready to grab the exclusive headlines. Although we clearly know that there are entertainment and exclusive reports from emperor''s private TV station, it''s not easy to get exclusive headlines... But we still try our best to find a way one by one. Following Gu Beichen''s love affair with Jian Mo, the wedding of Gu Beichen''s brother, who died when he was a child, was also the curiosity of the melon eaters Li Jinxi and others returned to Li Jiyuan. At the dinner table, everyone chatted casually. The atmosphere of the family softened the fading night. During the meal, Li Jiyuan mentioned the names of two two and three three. When Li Jiyuan heard that three and three became little three, he immediately disagreed... Everyone couldn''t help laughing. In fact, at the moment, we are just joking. How can we really call Xiao San?! Chen Yu looked at Li Jinxi''s happy appearance, and his eyes were full of gratitude. Jinxi is a woman who is easy to be happy, but once such a woman is unhappy in her heart, it is difficult to come out. Children become Jinxi''s forever unhappy. But because of the kind he Yining, Jinxi became happy again He was grateful and thankful that Li Yunhao''s affair did not separate him from Jinxi, Yunze and Yining... From a person''s tragedy to a family''s tragedy. "By the way, the party tomorrow night..." Li Jinxi suddenly thought of something and said, "Beichen said that the emperor club is closed for a day. All of us, Yining''s friends... Anyway, everyone who likes to come." "Big carnival?" He Yining asked with a smile. Li Jinxi nodded. "It''s necessary... It''s inconvenient for you to look back. When the child is born, your mind is on the child again. If you want such a party, I''m afraid you can meet but not ask." He Yining nodded with a smile and looked at Li Yunze. His eyes were full of love. Li Jinxi looked at his children''s happiness, and the smile from the corners of his mouth didn''t stop. "By the way, when will one by one arrive?" Chen Yu suddenly asked. "Arrive at noon tomorrow." Li Yunze replied. "I''m free for class tomorrow..." Li Jiyuan said happily. "One by one, the little girl, the video with me in three days and two days, makes me miss her more and more." He Yining and Li Yunze looked at each other and laughed one after another. The little girl is a ghost spirit, which makes the old man laugh every day. She is a human spirit. "I seem to have brought a good friend back this time..." he Yining said with some uncertainty. "I said I met in the rock climbing group. I''ve had a good relationship in the past six months." "Boys and girls?" Li Jinxi was curious. "Boy!" Why Ning picked his eyebrows and suddenly remembered what Li Yunze said. I''m afraid a little girl is too unhappy this time Chapter 1739 Jane Mo waited until Yan Yan fell asleep before she came out of the room. There is a large building to be designed these two days. The first draft will be made today and it will be decided at the meeting tomorrow She went to the study first and knocked on the door. "Come in." Jian Mo opened the study door, looked at Gu Beichen, looked at the documents there, and asked, "do you need a cup of coffee?" President Gu has a foreign meeting in the evening, and she happens to be drawing a design drawing. "OK." Gu Beichen rubbed his eyebrows and answered. Jane nodded, turned and went downstairs to make coffee When the talent went downstairs, he saw that J and Jane Jie didn''t know what to say there, with a mysterious face. Jane Mo stood on the stairs and looked at it curiously for a while, and slightly glanced down. With the growth of age, Jian Jie didn''t sprout when he was a child. Instead, he competed with President Gu''s arrogant and coquettish appearance. She''s weird. President Gu is not naturally cold. He was also a high-quality sunny man when he was a child. Why didn''t the milk bag develop according to that when he was a child? At the thought of this, Jane Mo turned her mouth again and went to the kitchen without disturbing Jane Jie and J. "Madam, the fruit will be ready soon..." aunt Luo said with a smile when she saw Jane Mo coming in. "I''ll come and make two cups of coffee." Jian Mo''s colleague went to the coffee machine. Aunt Luo stopped her movements, sighed and said, "you and Chen Shao drink coffee as soon as they work... It''s better to drink less." Listening to Aunt Luo''s "nagging", Jane Mo answered with a smile, but her men kept moving. Aunt Luo shook her head when she saw it. "By the way," aunt Luo took an apple and was about to cut it. She suddenly remembered something. "Just heard the young master say that young Li''s daughter is coming back tomorrow?" "Well," said Jane Mo, "Yining and Yunze are going to have a wedding soon. My daughter must be back." After a pause, she looked at Aunt Luo and said with a smile, "we''re going to let Xiao Jie and be flower children one by one." Aunt Luo nodded approvingly. "The young master and miss 11 are very compatible. The young master is estimated to be happy." Jane Mo nodded with a smile on her face. "Xiao Jie has been dragging and dragging since childhood, and he is very considerate to look at them one by one..." she said, a little jealous. "He also picked out what he doesn''t like to eat one by one... What I don''t like, he will only dislike me for being picky about food." Aunt Luo smiled more kindly, "that''s because the young master knows that you have less time!" When Jane Mo drooped her eyes, the smile at the corners of her mouth became bigger. After the coffee was cooked, Jian Mo took one cup and put it on the table, and sent the other cup to Gu Beichen''s study When going up the stairs, Jian Mo subconsciously looked at Jian Jie again. For the first time, the milk bag was in the neutral position up and down, and didn''t even give her a look Jane Mo felt that her son was getting older and she was not kissing her anymore. Now there is a j around, and the milk bag has something on his mind. Talk to this little uncle! "What''s the matter?" Gu Beichen asked with a melancholy look on his face when he saw Jian Mo coming in. "I think Xiao Jie is a little strange." Jane Mo glanced down and put down her coffee. "I don''t know what I''m discussing with J?" Gu Beichen''s long arm explored, hugged Jian Mo''s waist and took her into his arms Jane Mo sat on Gu Beichen''s leg because of inertia. Gu Beichen closed his eyes and snorted, gently touching the skin behind Jian Mo''er. While taking a nap, his voice said in a dull voice: "at that time, Xiao Jie knew that he would come back tomorrow... I''m afraid he was wondering whether to ask for leave with the school tomorrow." "..." Jane Mo pulled at the corner of her mouth. Because the milk bag completely inherited the high IQ of the two people... Well, she firmly refused to admit that the milk bag just inherited gu! So, he would have learned those courses long ago. It''s just that she doesn''t want the milk bag to jump the grade too early and lose her childhood Therefore, even if you ask for leave, the teacher will not be allowed in public or private. "How old is he!" Jian Mo said discontentedly, "I''ve been truant for the little girl... Will it be too early?" Gu Beichen raised his thin lips and smiled. He got up from Jian Mo''s neck. Mo Tong looked at her deeply and said, "I have a crush on you. Of course, the sooner you decide, the better... And, if you''re good, you have to look tight first. If you don''t look back, there''s no place to cry?" Although Jian Mo thinks it''s good to have milk bags and one by one together, she always thinks that she spends her mind on girls when she is so small... Is it really good? After all, if you don''t want to have sex in the future, you don''t want to have sex in the future Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, frowned and sighed for a while, and knew what his little woman was thinking. "You''ve been thinking about something all day." Gu Beichen''s thin lips brushed gently on Jian Mo''s face, and his voice said with a trace of hoarseness, "Xiao Jie knows in his heart..." he smiled, "you can''t handle your own feelings clearly, and you''re worried about your son?" Then Gu Beichen''s lips left Jane Mo''s face. On Jian Mo''s face, which was stained with love, there was a touch of anger. "I''m worried about my son because I''m his mother... What''s more, I can''t handle it clearly? If I can''t handle it clearly, Junli, Zixiao, Shao... Huh!" Jane Mo''s words didn''t finish, and her lips had been blocked by Gu Beichen. Originally, he just didn''t want her to shout out the name of "Shaoqin", but as soon as he was infected, he couldn''t help but want to taste the beauty of her mouth. This little woman has suffered a lot with him... But now she is still strong enough to face every day''s life. He is grateful. "Mo''er..." Gu Beichen let Jane Mo Jiao go when she was panting. "Don''t you say other men, you can only think of me... It can only be mine, okay?" "Overbearing!" Jane Mo said so, but she was happy in her heart. She always feels overbearing and overbearing. "I''m overbearing, not because of you?" Gu Beichen raised his eyebrows. Jian Mo was more and more happy and asked softly, "when are you going to have a meeting?" Gu Beichen glanced at the time, "there are ten minutes left..." Jane Mo''s eyes flashed a smile, and she already hugged Gu Beichen and kissed another place. Just when both of them were about to lose control of each other, Jian Mo suddenly got up from Gu Beichen and looked at his deep and ambiguous ink pupil. The smile on the corner of his mouth was even worse, "I''m not yours, but you''re mine!" Gu Beichen''s eyes were deeper. Finally, he answered with a shallow voice, "HMM." Jian Mo was happy and gave Gu a cheek kiss. "Work hard... Otherwise, I''ll deduct your year-end bonus!" Then she turned and walked out of the study without disturbing Mr. Gu''s normal work. Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo and finally shook his head helplessly. His face was full of spoil. Chapter 1740 Jian Mo went downstairs. Because of Gu Beichen''s words, she subconsciously looked at Jian Jie... Suddenly there was a sense of desolation that "my son has grown up, has a daughter-in-law and forgets his mother". Alas! It''s too clever to have a son. It''s not fun at all. When she was a child, she didn''t let her mother feel the feeling of doting and protection. Now she''s a little bigger. All she thinks about is her little daughter-in-law Jane Mo went to the table and took a sip of coffee. Obviously, I added sugar and milk to myself, but there was a sense of astringency in my mouth. Jane is complaining about herself here alone. Over there, Jane Jie and j are still discussing. "If only I were as old as my little uncle!" Jane Jay drooped her shoulders and sighed. J is playing a game with a self modified PSP in his hand and a lollipop in his mouth. He is half lying on the sofa with his feet on the tea table. His voice is casual and says, "when you and I are so old, I can''t tell that there are handsome guys all over the world in your eyes!" "..." Jane Jie was annoyed. When he heard J say this, he was so angry that he took away his PSP. "Hey, little bastard, I''m about to pass the customs. You''re useless for me..." J said. When Jian Jie was about to escape, he grabbed him and beat him on the sofa. Jian Jie is about to die of anger. He was already disgusted with his childhood. His little uncle also said he was a "little broken child". He was "beaten" and couldn''t resist... That anger, Xiao Jun''s face turned red. Jane Mo didn''t take care of it, so she supported her arm and looked at the big one and the small one, and suddenly laughed. Aunt Luo cut the fruit out and watched J and Jian Jie fight. Seeing that Jian Mo was laughing happily, she couldn''t help but say angrily: "young lady doesn''t care. I''m still happy to watch the war here..." "What do you care?" Jane Mo smiled and said, "boys are going to fight." After a pause, she looked at Aunt Luo and asked, "did ah Chen and Zixiao do the same when they were children?" Aunt Luo thought for a moment and shook her head. "Chen Shao was gentle and considerate when he was a child, sunshine... Who was very comfortable with him? How could he fight?" It seems that it''s time for you to argue with me when you were young, but it''s time for you to argue with me "President Gu didn''t fight!" Jane Mo held her cheek in her hand. "It''s unscientific." Aunt Luo smiled. "I guess it''s also a fight, but I didn''t fight in front of others." Thinking of Gu Beichen''s black belly, Jian Mo felt that Aunt Luo''s statement was more reliable. the second day. The temperature in early autumn suddenly rose back, feeling that it would be summer again. Finally, Jianjie still didn''t go to the airport to pick up one by one. Naturally, I don''t want to go, but I think I need to hold a little posture... In addition, he can see a party in the evening. However, in the evening, when I saw a foreign child with white blonde hair and pure water blue eyes, talking and laughing with he Yining and Li Yunze, the face of a small Zhengtai suddenly turned black. "Alas..." J, the dead child, didn''t forget to add fuel to the fire. "I was wrong yesterday!" Jane Jie looked at him coldly and felt that there must be no good words in his little uncle''s mouth. Sure enough "I thought you''d have to wait until you''re my age to meet such a situation. It turns out that it''s already... Tut tut tut!" J also shook his head with exclamation and said with a pair of earnest words, "sure enough, it''s early to accept the blow." J didn''t say it was OK. When he said it, Jane Jie''s face became darker. "Mr Gu......" Jane Mo touched Gu Beichen slightly. Gu Beichen said softly, "huh?" "Look at your son," Jane Mo''s eyes twinkled with playful light, "just like when you saw Andy and I go to dinner together before!" "..." Gu Beichen twitched at his temples, "will you describe it?" "Yes! What an image..." Jane Mo looked at President Gu innocently. President Gu''s face is also black! Jane found that as like as two peas, her husband had the same fun as usual. "Xiaojie..." one by one, when she saw Jianjie, unlike the black air on his face, the little girl waved her hand with joy, and ran over with the handsome boy on one side, "Xiaojie, I miss you so much!" With that, the little girl has hugged Jane Jie and rubbed the black faced little Zhengtai with her head. Jane Jie is a little happy, but her eyes are a little sharp when looking at the foreign handsome boy. The foreign handsome boy raised his eyebrows and eyes. He didn''t think Jane Jie was impolite, but met his provocation. "Let me introduce you," said one by one in English. "This is Jemi, who I often mention going to kindergarten with me." After a pause, she pointed to the foreign handsome boy and introduced him to Jian Jie, "Xiao Jie, he''s Adolf. I''m a good friend in the rock climbing club." "Hello!" Jane Jie''s face is black. He''s still very polite. Adolf responded in German, with provocation in his eyes. If Jian Jie''s "possession" of one by one is due to his high IQ due to his independence from childhood. Adolf''s provocation at the moment is entirely because foreign children have to be precocious. "Alas, it seems that my son has a lot of enemies..." Jane Mo can''t hear what the two children are saying at the moment because she is far away from Jane Jie? However, later, Jian Mo found that when Jian Jie began to contact German, French, Italian... And so on, and even many unpopular languages, under the words of President Gu, she suddenly realized that today''s always smart milk bag had suffered an irrefutable loss. Because when Adolf children chat with each other all the way, they use German. At present, Jane Jie can only speak Chinese and English. Later, Jian Mo said with great satisfaction: sure enough, people need to grow up under the stimulation of love enemies... Look at her milk bag. Even if the emperor goes bankrupt in the future, you can do simultaneous translation or foreign language translation! Today is a big party before Li Yunze and he Yining''s wedding. The whole emperor club is empty for all friends to come and play. One by one, the emperor''s club on the 18th floor was full. However, the 18th floor is Gu Beichen''s circle. From the first floor to the 17th floor, they are all kinds of friends. "Didn''t you say you were coming back?" Jane Mo suddenly asked, "it''s going to be a wedding the day after tomorrow. He can''t come to the wedding scene, can he?" Gu Beichen chuckled, "that''s not true." "I can''t ask too much for my identity now." The Dragon owl came over with a warm hand. Li Yunze nodded approvingly, "if I can catch up with the wedding, I''m afraid I''ll have a task back and I won''t come back..." Chapter 1741 "I didn''t say it to the south. I shouldn''t." Gu Beichen slightly pondered and said, "it''s estimated that it''s a matter of time." The Dragon owl nodded in agreement. Jane Mo glanced. "I thought you four could get together tonight..." she said with some little regret. "It seems that we can only wait for Yunze and Yining''s wedding." Gu Beichen and others looked at each other with a smile and went to the crowd one after another. One after another, everyone in the circle arrived. Mo Shaochen came with Li Xiaoyue, but ye Chenyu came by himself. "Is Chen Chen on duty today?" Jane Mo frowned slightly. "When I called her the day before yesterday, she said she wasn''t on duty today?" "There''s a case to deal with temporarily. It''s estimated that it''s coming soon." Ye Chenyu looked at the time. "Let''s play first. My girl will arrive in an hour at most." People are now used to the unique name between Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu. The age difference makes the couple sweet all day. Everyone was chatting happily. Suddenly, yanmiao looked at each other with gnashing teeth. "Yan Yan, how..." before he Yining finished his words, he saw two men coming in close behind him and forgot their reaction for a moment. Huo Lianchen''s indifference is different from the lingran breath on Gu Beichen. This man is introverted and makes people feel no breath, but he can''t ignore his existence. It was a contradictory feeling, both comfortable and resistant. Unlike Huo Lianchen, Huo Qishen''s emotions need to be released a lot. The consistent cynicism, when Huo Lianchen followed, obviously like a child, did not hide yanmiao''s possessive desire at all. However, under Huo Lianchen''s childish disdain eyes... The final gas field determines the success or failure. ''Pooh Pooh'', why would you rather laugh, and then... Laugh! These days, I make complaints about the Miao''s Tucao Huo Lian Chen. Now, when she looks at the scene, she can''t help it. Fortunately, we are not strangers. Emperor group and Huo''s group also have business contacts. Naturally, Huo Lianchen''s arrival is not very abrupt "Yan Yan," he Yining said with a smile, "in fact, if Huo Er makes you angry, you can run to Huo Dashao''s arms!" "He Yining, did you instigate it like this?" Huo Qishen was very unhappy because Huo Lianchen came with him. At this moment, he Yining turned his eyes and said, "it''s a pity that I helped you before!" Because she can''t remember all the things before Li Yunze, he Yining seems to have a filter in her mind. Basically, as long as Li Yunze is involved, she doesn''t seem to remember clearly. Naturally, Huo Qishen didn''t know why she would rather call Huo Lianchen. Although he Yining, who had a relapse of emotional illness at that time, didn''t know it. He Yining shook his body slightly and said with a bleak face: "I don''t care whether you help me or not. I just care whether my family is hot or not." "She is happy when she is by my side!" Huo Qi hummed deeply and looked across the Jin shaosi who was talking to Gu Beichen, "Hey, why Ning... Fang Xiran hasn''t finished Jin shaosi yet?" "Everyone has returned to the army. What''s done?" Why would you rather curl your mouth. "Didn''t you see the circle of zihanfa today?" Yanmiao suddenly said, "just now." "Didn''t see..." he Yining said, taking out his mobile phone and opening wechat. When he saw the circle of friends sent by Fang Zihan, ''hey hey'' smiled, "I''ll fool shaosi to win the project later." Huo Qishen was curious and took yanmiao''s mobile phone to see Fang Zihan''s circle. Originally, a group army wanted to purchase a batch of red wine. Several people seemed to clearly look at each other and laughed one after another... Their eyes fell on Mr. Jin. At the right moment, Jin shaosi also happened to look at him. After he Yining looked up, he smiled, took back his sight and continued chatting with the men. "Look at those men together. Why do you have to stick to me?" Yanmiao suddenly dislikes Huo Qishen. Huo Qishen said, "I''m not stupid... Huo Lianchen is just talking to President Gu right now. I''ll continue to cultivate feelings with you." He looked serious and didn''t dislike Guan yanmiao at all. "I can''t talk to them and give my place to Huo Lianchen!" "There''s nothing wrong with that!" He Yining smiled and looked at Jian Mo, who was drinking a cup of strange fruit juice, "Mo Mo, what''s the matter?" Then she looked down Jane Mo''s line of sight... And fell on them one by one. "Oh, I''m worried that my milk bag can''t make your family one by one." Jane Mo shook her head. The women laughed first. "Xiaojie Shaoyan is good and smart. Will you worry about things in vain?" Li Xiaoyue rolled his eyes. "Besides, this is a child. Will you worry too early?" "Yes, it''s uncertain!" Chen Yu interrupted, "don''t look back one by one, Xiaojie. My future daughter wants to!" Why not do it immediately, "Hey, in addition to one by one, don''t forget that I still have a daughter in my stomach!" "Mo Mo, Yi Xun has to queue up!" Said with a warm smile. Suddenly, all the women began to compete for Jian Jie He Yining wailed, "is this a war caused one by one... Or is it caused by Xiao Jie?!" Huo Qishen suddenly said in yanmiao''s ear, "Miaomiao, why don''t we have a daughter and fight?" "..." Yan Miao mouth jerk, under the Huo Qi deep brain circuit, she is really lazy to make complaints about it. This world is not Jian Jie''s future son-in-law. Why fight for one?! And have a daughter to fight for! be ill! As if seeing through what yanmiao was thinking, Huo Qi''s deep eyes became deeper and said slowly, "I''m just sick... Otherwise, how can I need you as a doctor?!" Yan Miao was flushed by his hot sight and the ambiguity of the latent meaning. Fortunately, everyone was busy having fun and didn''t pay attention. ¡­¡­ After Chu Zixiao finished his work from the law firm, he drove to the emperor''s Club When passing a traffic light intersection, I was waiting in the neutral position and inadvertently turned my head... I saw Zhang Nian enter a boutique. Slightly stunned, a whistle came from behind the car. He looked at the green light and hurried to start the car. However, he didn''t leave, but went to the parking lot of one side of the mall. After parking the car, he went to the boutique Standing at the door of the boutique, Chu Zixiao looked at Zhang Nian with a small wind chime in his hand and couldn''t put it down. The corners of his mouth rose slightly. Just when Zhang Nian sighed slightly and wanted to put the wind chime back, he went in and took it in his hand Chapter 1742 Zhang Nian was stunned and looked aside subconsciously Chu Zixiao looked down at the wind chime in his hand. It was exquisite and small, not too complicated. The small hammer used to collide and knock in the middle was just a "cross". Raising her eyes, Chu Zixiao smiled at Zhang Nian''s line of sight. "Why are you here?" Zhang Nian was a little surprised. "You just got off work?" Chu Zixiao didn''t answer the question. Zhang Nian nodded with a smile. "Well, just after work, I''ll turn around nearby if I have nothing to do. I''m going to eat and go home later." "Do you still have the habit of living there?" Chu Zixiao said and didn''t put the little wind chime back. Zhang Nian nodded again. "If you''re not used to living in such a place, it''s too hypocritical." "Qiao Jinnian hasn''t come to you again?" Chu Zixiao motioned to Zhang Nian, and he went to settle the account of xiaofengling. "No..." Zhang Nian replied, "but I heard that I went to the hospital. It happened that I wasn''t on duty that day." "Yes." Chu Zixiao didn''t ask too much, but handed the small wind bell packed by the clerk to Zhang Nian, "happy move." Slightly paused, "it''s suitable to put it on the hanging chair next to the balcony!" "How do you know I want to buy a wind chime to hang there?" Zhang Nian was obviously surprised. "Guess." Chu Zixiao said with a smile, "I''m just going to a party. Let''s go and play for a while and have dinner by the way?" "It''s not appropriate for me to go. I won''t go." Zhang Nian shook her head and went out of the boutique with Chu Zixiao. "The day after tomorrow, Yunze and Yining will get married. Tonight is the party before the wedding." Chu Zixiao explained, "many people went, and Beichen vacated the whole emperor club for everyone to play..." Zhang Nian frowned slightly and wanted to bless her. However, she always felt embarrassed about her past and identity. "Just friends!" Chu Zixiao emphasized. Zhang niangang just wanted to say no, but Chu Zixiao''s four words of preemption made him don''t know what to say. Alas! When talking to a lawyer, it turns out that as long as you slow down, you will be blocked by the other party. I don''t know what to say? At this moment, if she refuses, doesn''t it mean that she is not a friend with Chu Zixiao? Zhang Nian was a little difficult to ride a tiger. In addition, he thanked Jian Mo and Li Yunze for their help. Finally, he agreed to go with Chu Zixiao. But at this moment, neither Zhang Nian nor Chu Zixiao thought that when they crossed the road, they met Qiao Jinnian again. Look at three people, that''s it. Chu Zixiao''s cold look made Zhang Nian feel at a loss... Qiao Jinnian''s eyes gradually exuded a strange sneer. "Zhang Nian, you really make me look down on you." Qiao Jinnian seemed disappointed and said. Chu Zixiao sneered, "first of all, Xiaonian doesn''t need you to look up to... She just needs to have a clear conscience." He glanced at Zhang Nian. At the right time, she also looked over. "Secondly," he gave Zhang Nian a soothing look and then looked at Qiao Jinnian, "Qiao Jinnian, since you love, don''t hurt... Even if you can''t be together, just be the one who cares about her, isn''t it good?" Chu Zixiao didn''t want to say anything more with Qiao Jinnian. He motioned to Zhang Nian and walked to the position of the car together. "Just be someone who cares about her?" Qiao Jinnian said when Zhang Nian''s figure wanted to miss him, "Chu Zixiao, Zhang Nian is by your side now. Of course, it''s easy for you to say so." Chu Zixiao sighed and stopped to look at Qiao Jinnian. "Once, I was like you..." he narrowed his eyes slightly, "of course, it''s not Xiaonian, it''s another woman!" Zhang Nian looks at Chu Zixiao. She knows that the woman is Jian mo. "I didn''t understand why I worked so hard and couldn''t get it in the end?" Chu Zixiao said slowly, "I used many sharp means, and even almost killed her... When I woke up, all the harm had been done." "Qiao Jinnian, will you be as sober as me at that moment?" Chu Zixiao said lightly, "but even if you are awake at that moment, what will happen? If you are hurt, you have always been hurt!" Chu Zixiao looked at Qiao Jinnian, who was slightly stunned. Without saying anything, he left with Zhang Nian. In fact, some people''s living status and rights will indirectly determine the final damage value. The damage of big people is instant critical hit, while small people... Are often permeable and slow damage, which will cause more sadness. Therefore, Chu Zixiao doesn''t mind reminding Qiao Jinnian with his own things. As for what he can''t listen to and how to do it in the end, it''s just his choice. And he just needs to protect Zhang Nian as much as possible. After all, it happened because of him. "Haven''t you forgotten her?" Zhang Nian broke the silence in the car and asked. Chu Zixiao glanced at Zhang Nian and knew she was talking about Mo Mo, "she is just my little aunt and Beichen''s wife now." I don''t know how to accommodate two people at the same time If Mo Mo was not in the past tense, he would not fall in love with Zhang Nian. Even if you fall in love, it''s after you hurt Zhang Nian lowered her eyes and smiled at the corners of her mouth. She didn''t dare to continue this topic. She was afraid that Chu Zixiao''s words would make her don''t know how to deal with it. When Jian Mo saw Chu Zixiao coming with Zhang Nianlai, she was the first to brighten her eyes. Gu Beichen looked at his broken wife and squeezed her hand: "calm down. There''s a little hope back. You''ve put it out." "Bah!" Jian Mo was immediately dissatisfied, "I will only turn hope into a raging flame." Gu Beichen smiled helplessly, let go of Jian Mo and asked Zhang Nian to go. The people on the 18th floor are all close friends. Naturally, we all know about Chu Zixiao and Zhang Nian At this moment, no one will deliberately do anything to embarrass Zhang Nian, but they will also make her a couple with Chu Zixiao openly and secretly. Whether playing games or whatever, Zhang Nian takes Chu Zixiao. Some things, I''m afraid of habit. Once you get used to it, it''s natural. Even if there is no final result, it is always to develop in a good place Li Xiaoyue suddenly felt a little sad in such an environment. Especially after everyone just talked about whose daughter finally married Jane Jie, and Li Yunze''s relationship with why Yining from time to time... She was a little more frustrated. The hand was suddenly held into the warm palm at the bottom of the table. Li Xiaoyue glanced at Mo Shaochen and pulled at the corners of his mouth, indicating that he was fine. She knew that Mo Shaochen saw the loss in her heart at the moment Jane Mo was sitting on the other side of Li Xiaoyue. She turned slightly and said, "let''s go for afternoon tea tomorrow afternoon?" "Good!" Li Xiaoyue nodded and was moved. In such an atmosphere, Mo Mo can still notice her little loss. She should adjust herself. After all, around is the best friend and favorite man Chapter 1743 Everyone ate, drank and played, and didn''t disperse until the early morning. Jane Mo asked several women to have afternoon tea tomorrow afternoon. She also understood that tomorrow is the eve of the wedding. Li Yunze and he Yining are not allowed to meet. Li Yunze couldn''t laugh or cry, "please, Yining and I are married. Shall we just make up for the wedding?" "No, no, no, today, my mother and I went home to the building..." one by one also participated in, "Dad, I can see my mother at the wedding!" "No!" The first object is not Li Yunze, but Jian Jie. Everyone looked at Jian Jie and saw the handsome boy look at Adolf and said coolly, "there are only two bedrooms over there. Aunt Ning is pregnant now. It''s best to sleep alone... How can I sleep the rest?" The adults looked at each other and smiled one after another. Adolf and 11 are still children. Sometimes there''s nothing in a room... But it''s not good to be reminded by Jane Jie. "Well!" Li Yunze said, "I go back to my father''s villa to sleep. Yining takes two children to the apartment." He Yining nodded without objection. After all, if one by one can finally come together with Xiaojie, they are all happy to see their success. People leave one after another. There is nothing to do. Those who want to continue playing, continue All the expenses of the emperor club today are Gu Beichen''s alone... No, it''s Jian Mo''s! President Gu said that he is now a soft rice and working man. Fortunately, the gold Lord''s wife is open-minded and never checks accounts. "Make an appointment tomorrow afternoon!" Jian Mo also reminded ladies before leaving. The crowd responded with laughter. Night, because it is about to usher in happy things and become wonderful. While thinking about the future, Qingchen and my people are talking about Jane''s future one by one Of course, it''s Jane Mo talking and thinking. Gu is doing physical exercise at the moment. Feeling deep, Gu Beichen felt that Jian Mo''s thoughts were not on him. He was angry, so he died a few times. Jian Mo screamed and could only cooperate with him. After two rounds of fighting, Gu Beichen went to the bathroom with Jian mo. The two were in such a big bathtub, enjoying the massage of the water while chatting. "Alas," Jian Mo suddenly sighed, "if Xiao Yue is pregnant, it''s really the best thing this autumn." Gu Beichen glanced at Jian Mo and didn''t speak. Li Xiaoyue''s body is difficult to get pregnant due to miscarriage caused by slag man''s foot. Unlike Li Jinxi, she can''t get pregnant. She depends on fate. "Ah Chen..." Jian Mo called softly, turned over and pressed Gu Beichen with water spray. Gu Beichen sighed secretly. He was afraid to be cruel to the little woman. He didn''t dare to make big moves. She was good... He was pressed on him recklessly. Doesn''t this woman know that in the Jacuzzi, this kind of skin close to the surging water will make men unbearable?! "Do you think Shaochen has any idea because he has no children?" Jane Mo is a little worried. Gu Beichen gently pinched Jian Mo''s nose, endured the scurrying breath in his body, and said in a slightly hoarse voice, "No." He paused. "If there were no Chenyu, he might feel a little guilty about his parents. But now there is Chenyu, there will be no guilt." "Really?" Jane Mo is a little worried. "What kind of person is Shaochen? Isn''t your best friend the most clear?" Gu Beichen asked. Jane Mo thought for a moment. Since Xiao Yue and Shaochen got married, they have always been very good and quarreled occasionally... Although Xiao Yue said that she quarreled, it seems that there is no big problem. The main reason why Xiao Yue couldn''t quarrel was that in front of Shaochen, she always thought she had moved the regulations wrong and had to check... After checking, her anger was gone. Jane Mo''s brain is thinking here. Her body occasionally shakes unconsciously and rubs Gu Beichen Gu Beichen has been so inadvertently twisted by her that she can''t control it. Finally, when the Adam''s apple rolls, there is an ambiguous breath in her throat. She has turned over and pressed Jian Mo down... There is a passionate time in the jacuzzi. The next day, the weather continued the previous day and was still very good. At the flower dance cafe, several women meet here for afternoon tea. "I missed you last night. I was in a hurry. I came back at noon..." Shen Chu sat down and ordered a cup of coffee. First, I congratulated why Yining on the success of the long-distance love race. Although he Yining can''t remember the past, she''s not surprised because her diary and people around her occasionally mention it. No matter before or now, she felt that as long as she was in love with Li Yunze, why bother so much about the past, present and future?! People who love each other have different happiness every day, don''t they? "Xiao Chu, what''s the matter with your director?" Li Jinxi suddenly joked and asked. Shen Chu sighed for a long time and wrote on his face, "my career is on the rise now. That man sticks to it like dog skin plaster all day and can''t tear it off... I''m surprised. He''s a ghost director. Why is he so idle all day?" "It''s because of high popularity and casual..." Li Jinxi picked his eyebrow. "Lu Haotian''s talent is capricious." "I really begged him not to be capricious!" Shen Chu couldn''t stand rolling his eyes. Jian Mo looked at Shen Chu and smiled at the corners of her mouth. Even Li Xiaoyue is Up to now, they both remember when Shen Chu just came back from abroad and was in love with Jian mo. It''s not too much to say she''s a cunning bitch. But now, Shen Chu is a strong woman in the architectural design industry. The combination of "haunting" with Jian Mo is even more difficult to find. Who could have thought that Shen Chu and Jian Mo would become friends in the boudoir from their rival in love?! Shen Chu, who is free from family constraints, radiates light. Jane Mo suddenly thought, if Xiao Yue can break through the obsession of children, will she be happier than now? Suddenly Jane Mo slightly twisted her eyebrows and leaned over to Li Xiaoyue. "Xiaoyue, are you feeling sick? I think you look a little bad?" "I felt a little uncomfortable in my stomach near noon," Li Xiaoyue said, and his men consciously pressed on his stomach. "Later, I drank some boiled water and felt better. I didn''t care. I just seemed to have a pain again." "Is aunt coming?" Shen Chu happened to be beside Jian Mo and heard them talking, so he asked. She didn''t deliberately block her voice. Several people who were chatting suddenly looked at Li Xiaoyue with concern. Li Xiaoyue was a little sorry. "I''m fine. Don''t look at the patient..." she said, looking at he Yining, "especially you, a doctor." "Yining is a gynecologist," said Li Jinxi. "Xiao Yue, are you your aunt''s pain or what''s going on? It''s just Yining''s in this regard." "Yes!" He Yining asked with concern, "where is your pain? Have you come to your great aunt?" Chapter 1744 Li Xiaoyue shook his head, "haven''t come yet." Originally, her great aunt was not particularly accurate. After that abortion, she was not allowed to be severe. Sometimes it comes half a month, sometimes it comes more than two months. Go to the hospital for examination, because it is caused by trauma. It is nothing more than slow conditioning, and there is no way to cure it He Yining listened and gently touched Li Xiaoyue''s stomach, asking where it hurt, where it didn''t hurt, whether there was a feeling of acid swelling, or a little like when his great aunt came. Li Xiaoyue answered one by one. Inexplicably, he was a little nervous. Everyone was worried at the moment, so they heard Shen Chu say, "it''s not far from Li Yunze anyway. It''s better to check it and find a place to have dinner together!" "Yes, yes." Li Jinxi immediately agreed. Jane Mo was also worried. She looked at each other with warmth and frowned one after another. Here, neither warmth nor Li Jinxi can get pregnant. One is Jinxi''s body, and the other is the warm man dragon Owl "no". Li Xiaoyue is relying on luck. Everyone doesn''t want to leave any root causes for his usual small problems... We knew early and prevented early. "I really need to go to the hospital for examination." After he Yining''s general inquiry, he nodded to agree with the people. Jane Mo quickly recruited the waiter to check out. They drove to Huakang hospital one after another. Li Yunze heard that several women had gathered in the hospital. He didn''t know what had happened. He hurried to the Department of Obstetrics and gynecology. Subconsciously, he thought what was going on. After all, it seems that those who need to go to obstetrics and Gynecology now should be better. Dr. Ge was on duty today and examined Li Xiaoyue himself. "Yining, is there a problem?" Jane Mo asked anxiously. He Yining looked at the crowd, smiled and said, "I''m not sure, so wait until the inspection results come out..." after a pause, she relieved everyone''s tension and said, "it shouldn''t be a bad thing." They seemed to have guessed something, but because they were not sure, they didn''t dare to say it casually, which made everyone happy. "What''s going on?" When Li Yunze arrived, he twisted his eyebrows and asked, looking at a circle of people, "who went in?" "Xiao Yue." Jane Mo replied. "I checked roughly. Xiao Yue was a little uncomfortable. We didn''t trust him, so let''s come and have a check." He Yining then said. As soon as Li Yunze listened, he glanced at the eye examination room as if he knew something and nodded. The examination came out soon. Dr. Ge and Li Xiaoyue came out smiling. "Miss Li is pregnant." Dr. Ge said with a smile under the expectant eyes. "Really?!" Jian Mo''s eyes widened in surprise and then looked at Li Xiaoyue. Li Xiaoyue had a thin water light in his eyes, an excited and happy smile in his mouth, and nodded to Jian mo. As soon as Jian Mo was happy, she came forward and hugged Li Xiaoyue. "Xiaoyue, great..." she said. She was out of control and sobbed. People were also moved. Although not everyone knows Li Xiaoyue''s past, they know that she wants a child until... It''s finally coming. Naturally, everyone is sincerely happy for her. When Mo Shaochen heard the news, the runner came to the hospital, followed by Gu Beichen and ye Chenyu. "Tomorrow is my wedding with Yining," Li Yunze said with a smile. "Today Xiao Yue was found to be pregnant. This is the biggest gift." Everyone''s faces were filled with laughter. They heard Ye Chenyu take his mobile phone and say, "Shaochen, call aunt Cen and I''ll tell my mother." "OK." Mo Shaochen answered, hugged Li Xiaoyue and called Cen Lanxi. The younger generation has been so happy. When mother ye and Cen Lanxi heard that Shaochen had a child, they were even more happy and couldn''t close their mouths. Originally intended to be a small pre wedding party for women, they finally gathered in gujia manor. Different from Jian Mo''s pregnancy, Li Xiaoyue can be pregnant. Don''t say how happy everyone is. "Chenyu, Xiaoyu..." Cen Lanxi looked at Ye Chenyu and Chen Yu and said with a slightly straight face, "you can also consider... If you don''t look back, it''s too different from everyone''s children, it''s not easy to choose the best." "Sister, children have children''s world, let them!" Mother Ye smiled and said, "now Shaochen and Xiaoyue have children. Let''s hold them first." "Yes!" CEN Lanxi stared at Ye Chenyu angrily, and then ordered the servant to cook tonic Soup for Li Xiaoyue. At the same time, he asked why Yining, "what should I pay attention to, girl Yining?" "Pay attention, the hospital said at that time..." he Yining said with a smile, "just don''t be tired." "Then don''t take the case at Xiaoyue''s nearest law firm. Let Shaochen and Zixiao help deal with what you have on hand." Although Cen Lanxi''s voice was habitual command, it was obvious that there was inquiry in his words. Li Xiaoyue looked at Mo Shaochen, smiled and nodded. She is a hard-earned child, and she doesn''t want any accidents. Besides, she can never finish her work. Now she just wants her children to be smooth Thinking, Li Xiaoyue unconsciously stroked his stomach. The kind of happiness and happiness were all written on his face. Here, because Li Xiaoyue was suddenly pregnant, he chatted happily. He was sitting outside on a hollowed out British white chair with a few glasses of red wine in front of him, but his face was obviously a little strange. "Did you call south?" The Dragon owl looks at Gu Beichen. Gu Beichen shook his head slightly. "If it''s really a task, I''m afraid there''s no way to call." Lin Nanan belongs to the special forces. Most of the special missions in that place are highly secretive. Naturally, no matter how close you are, you are not allowed to say it when you are on a mission... This is the rule. Li Yunze sighed slightly, "I still think that the four young people can get together this time." He smiled and looked at the Dragon owl. "It seems that if we don''t make it back to the south this time, we can only wait to go to Longdao together and get together when we attend your warm wedding." Dragon owl and warm wedding have not been held. Before, it was because of his warm body. Later, it was because he didn''t return to the dragon''s house. He needed to shoulder the integration of EMP securities club, Fei night casino and Yadong bank. Now things are settled. The wedding of dragon owl and warm will be held in Huilong island at the end of the year. Even if he is not the candidate for power in Longdao, he is also a descendant of the dragon family. Gu Beichen''s eyes were slightly restrained, and his face was as cold as carving, with a thin color of worry. According to the southward temperament, even if it''s a task, it''s still possible to give Yunze a wedding blessing That boy has never been a conformist. No! It''s either coming back tomorrow or Gu Beichen frowned slightly. After all, he took out his mobile phone and dialed Lin Nannan''s number. Chapter 1745 "The phone you dialed is turned off. Please redial later..." The voice came from the machine. Gu Beichen frowned slightly and hung up the phone. "Can''t get through?!" The Dragon owl''s voice was faint. He asked and was sure. Gu Beichen nodded slightly, and the three brothers were silent at the right time. "Let''s have a look tomorrow," Li Yunze said slightly. "I don''t know if there will be a surprise at the wedding tomorrow." "Well, it''s also in line with the south." The Dragon owl spoke faintly. "Mr. Lin will arrive tomorrow. If he doesn''t come to the south, ask about the situation again." Gu Beichen said, looking at the time, "go in. It''s estimated that the meal is almost ready... I left early today to save me from being in bad shape tomorrow." With Gu Beichen talking, the three men had got up and walked into the house. Compared with their calm, those around Li Xiaoyue in the room are still excited one by one. "Last night, er Mo''er was still worried about Xiao Yue and Shaochen''s children. Today, there was a surprise." Gu Beichen looked at Jian Mo, who seemed happier than Li Xiaoyue, and his eyes were full of tenderness. "Everyone can get their own perfect after all." The voice of the Dragon owl is always faint. Warm now, because of Yixun, there is also spiritual sustenance. A family of three... It''s also very good. Everyone has his own happiness Such happiness has nothing to do with others! "The atmosphere of those children is a little strange!" Li Yunze said suddenly. Long Xiao and Gu Beichen looked over and saw the small leisure area in front of the French window with Jane Jiejun''s small face hanging. "The flower boy has decided!" Jane Jie snorted coldly, "one by one, don''t you know it''s me and you?" "I know!" "But Adolf is a guest from afar! Moreover, he has never been a flower boy and wants to experience it." At the moment, Jian Jie and one by one are in Chinese. Adolf doesn''t understand what they are arguing about. Jian Jie glanced at Adolf lightly, and his small face was completely dissatisfied, "I don''t agree." "Xiao Jie!" Frowned one by one, "why?" "To disagree is to disagree." Jane Jie is a little arrogant. Naturally, he won''t tell one by one why he doesn''t agree. This time he came back with this Adolf one by one, and he was quite satisfied. This Adolf has been dominating one by one, saying that he needs to understand the humanities of Los Angeles Understand? Know a piece of wool! What can you learn from each mouth? She only knows how to eat! "I don''t care whether you agree or not." One by one, it seems that there is a temperament, "my father and mother are married. I will marry whoever I like to have a flower girl with!" "..." Jane Jie was stunned. Hummed one by one. He was very angry that Jane Jie didn''t understand her this time. Jian Jie also looked cold. "OK, you can take it with whoever you like..." he glanced at Adolf, who obviously smiled provocatively at him, and snorted coldly, "I Gu Yan really want to be this flower boy!" "..." one by one, when Jane Jie said this, her nose was a little sour, but she was stubborn, stared and covered it with anger. The first "quarrel" between the two little people since they met. For Jane Jay, that is sovereignty cannot be compromised. But for one by one, it is Xiao Jie who has always been good to her. With the distance between the two people, they are gradually alienated... He is not good to her either! At the dinner table, adults clearly felt the unusual atmosphere between children. Someone wanted to ask, but Gu Beichen stopped it. He believes that children should deal with problems by themselves. If adults participate more, they will deviate from the direction. After dinner at Gu''s manor, they left. Tomorrow is why Yining''s wedding with Li Yunze. Because Yining''s parents are gone, Jian Mo and others agreed to go to the apartment as their mother''s family early. Xu was so happy that he felt that the whole air was filled with the taste of happiness that everyone said to go home and rest early, but no one could sleep. Of course, Mo Shaochen and Li Xiaoyue are the most popular here. "Xiaoyue, you can finally be completely happy..." Mo Shaochen held her from behind Li Xiaoyue, buried his face in her neck and gently sniffed her breath. Li Xiaoyue leaned in Mo Shaochen''s arms, and his nose was a little sour, "you know?" "Yes." Mo Shaochen answered gently, his lips and tongue crossed her skin, held her earrings, stirred her and comforted her. Li Xiaoyue''s eyes are also gradually red. She thinks she''s covered up well enough, but it turns out... She''s never escaped the man''s eyes. "Shaochen, I..." "Don''t tell me you''re sorry!" Mo Shaochen''s lips and tongue left Li Xiaoyue''s skin, gently rubbed her with his head and said slowly, "you are happy, I can be happy... Understand?" Li Xiaoyue''s eyes have been dizzy with water mist, but there is a sweet smile on his mouth. Even though there had been too many injuries in the past, she almost fell down. But now she is happy Everyone has the right to happiness. As long as you can manage yourself well and face life hard, your happiness and happiness will always be on the road ahead, waiting for you. Just like her If she had given up herself, how could she have today''s happiness?! "Shaochen," Li Xiaoyue turned in Mo Shaochen''s arms and gently kissed his lips, "I love you!" "I love you too..." Mo Shaochen hugged her tightly. "I haven''t changed since I love you." In the past, he loved Shen Chu. Later, he loved Xiao Yue Shen Chu is his first love, but Xiao Yue... Is his whole life. Life is sometimes very long, sometimes very short, inadvertently, it will disappear. Therefore, he cherishes every day, every minute and every second with Xiaoyue. ¡­¡­ early morning. The sun has not completely penetrated the darkness, and there is only a trace of whiteness in the East In the apartment, people have arrived one after another. The makeup artist is making up and doing hair for he Yining. Everything was ready when the sun rose completely and the soft light dissipated the slight coolness left by the night in the air. He Yining put on the Chinese style dress made by Yan''s mother, and her hair was curled up by the makeup artist. The Chinese style hair ornament was designed by Jian Mo and specially made by the jewelry company of emperor group. "How beautiful!" Yan Miao sighed again. Jane and warm nodded immediately, "go out and let everyone have a look!" He Yining, with a happy smile on his face, went out of the bedroom with yanmiao and others. In the living room, Li Jinxi and others were there. When they saw he Yining, they all praised him one by one. Different from Jane Mo, which exudes intelligence and charm, mixed with some cold and arrogant temperament... Why should the beauty at the moment be better? It is the beauty of a lady under the spirit. As a member of his mother''s family, Jin shaosi was also there. He quietly looked at why Ning''s charming appearance like flowers, and gradually deepened his eyes. Yining, thank you... Finally happy! "I can''t imagine that Yining will have such a lady one day." Li Jinxi joked, "I still remember Yining who tossed Yunze in the past." Chapter 1746 He Yining blushed, not knowing whether the red stain was blush or blush stained red. There is no woman who doesn''t expect to wear wedding clothes for the man she loves. Naturally, why not do the same. Whether there is the memory of those twenty years or not, for her... Today''s wedding makes her full of happiness. The sunshine is only good. In the vineyard with quiet fragrance, it seems that all the sweetness is sent out, which makes people yearn Champagne roses with red roses, all the arrangements are full of the past of he Yining and Li Yunze. Once Luo Da proposed, Li Yunze engraved their love in that ring... Trapped he Yining''s life. At this moment, hand in hand, with the blessing of relatives and friends, they are walking slowly on the red carpet covered with petals... They want to be together in the next life. What is love? Love is that you hold my hand, and I am willing to give my hand to you Because it''s not just holding hands, but entrusting my life to you completely. Why Ning tilted his head and looked at Li Yunze in a Chinese dress with a smile in his mouth. His eyes were full of love. Li Yunze turned his head at the right time, looked at her with loving eyes, and the corners of his mouth gradually rose Yining, I am very grateful that I can finally hold your hand to the first step of our life together and the last step of your single life. Even after so much experience, you still came to me. On the large screen temporarily erected on one side, there are photos of he Yining and Li Yunze when they were children, interspersed with their wedding photos... The same scene can always be found. He Yining loves Li Yunze all his life. Now he dotes on her all his life! The sunshine is just right, and people''s smiles are gorgeous. Li Jiyuan''s eyes were a little red, which was happy and excited. When the eldest son left, he felt that the family might no longer be happy. But now, because Jinxi put down, she and Chen Yu have a good start. Also because of Yunze''s transparency, he Yining can come to the end Li Jiyuan looked at a pair of flower children behind the new couple. They were wearing white princess skirts, with long hair scattered behind their shoulders and a garland of stars and corn lilies on their head. They were beautiful and smart. On one side At first, everyone thought it would be Jane Jie, but in the end, because Adolf came all the way, he became him temporarily. But whether it''s Jian Jie or Adolf, around one by one, it seems that they will lose color Li Jiyuan''s smile was a little bigger. He admitted that he was only looking at her because she was his granddaughter! The whole wedding scene was full of smiling blessings to Li Yunze and he Yining. Everyone''s faces were piled with smiles of different depths. Only, there was no smile on Jian Jie''s face, and a pair of black eyes stared at the flower girl behind the newcomer. Jane Jie''s little face hasn''t been better since she knew last night that she wanted Adolf to be a flower girl with her At the moment, looking at the two people in small suits and little princess skirts, he was depressed and wanted to pretend to smile, but he couldn''t! "Roar!" Jane Mo leaned slightly to Jane Jie''s side, her lips were almost wrong, and her voice was a "warning" under a snicker! Jian Jie looked back at Jian Mo, "Dad, please take care of your mother... You don''t pay attention to watching a wedding!" Gu Beichen looked at his son lightly, and naturally knew that his son was not happy at this moment. He could make complaints about his wife at any time because he was unhappy. After receiving his father''s warning, Jane Jie snorted and looked at Adolf with dissatisfaction. Unfortunately, the little one without conscience didn''t realize anything, but was still angry with him! He yunning, who is most angry, has come to the front. Today''s witness is the Minister of health. It is not only because he Yining and Li Yunze are doctors, but also because of Li Yunze''s contribution to the medical cause. "Li Yunze, on the premise of Hippocratic oath, while doing everything possible to treat patients, you can accompany your wife with your greatest love..." the minister smiled and asked, "... Why?" Li Yunze took he Yining''s hand and tightened it slightly. They looked at each other and smiled. They listened to him seriously and said, "you must be able to!" After a slight meal, he continued, "whether it is a patient or a lover, I will love with all my enthusiasm... I will also bring more benefits to the medical cause with my wife." Why Ning Zhe''s mouth is smiling, and the deep love and honey in the bottom of their eyes can be felt by even those who are watching the ceremony at the moment. After looking at the list in his hand with a smile, the minister looked at he Yining and said, "he Yining, on the premise of Hippocratic oath, while doing his best to treat the patient, can you enjoy Li Yunze''s love for you and love him?" "I will always love him as he loves me!" Why Ning smiled and looked at Li Yunze: "I am willing to work with him to minimize the patient''s pain, and know and love her... All my life!" At this moment, everyone was moved by them. A circle, no matter what proportion you occupy... It is the most beautiful and perfect thing in life to find a piece to fill your lack in the whole life. When the minister announced the ceremony, ribbons were flying all over the sky Li Jinxi took the flannelette box and came forward. There were two colored ribbons flying on it, with a cross knot ring in the middle. "The ring is still designed by myself..." Li Yunze picked up one of the women''s rings, raised he Yining''s hand and said softly, "Yining, the ribbon and the Red Cross are what we need to dedicate in our life... And the added love is what I have no regrets in my life." With Li Yunze''s words, the ring representing additive love was put on he Yining''s ring finger... That finger nearest to the heart. He Yining was moved and flushed his eyes. He picked up the male ring and put it on for Li Yunze. At the same time, his voice choked with happiness and said: "Li Yunze, loving you and being loved by you are what I want to do in my life..." Her words fell, and Li Yunze had hugged her and kissed her hard. At the same time, Gu Beichen gently rubbed Jian Mo''s finger with a wedding ring. There are tattoos engraved on his behalf. Mo''er once said that she wanted to put him nearest to her heart. Turn your head and look at the Dragon owl. The two men''s eyes were slightly deep, and their eyes looked at the two people kissing on the stage Maybe this moment is too happy. The happiness makes people feel a little lost. Los Angeles four young, now only the South has not been happy And today''s wedding, South in the end did not show up. Just thinking, suddenly something came. People see Seeing that Mr. Lin still held his mobile phone in his hand, he seemed unable to accept the stimulation after a "what", and fainted with black eyes! Chapter 1747 Everything came too suddenly. Suddenly, people were stunned for a moment, and they all surrounded the past. Fortunately, Li Yunze was there. Everyone called an ambulance and waited for Li Yunze to do a simple examination. "What''s the matter with old Lin?" Why should I rather breathe and ask with slight coagulation. Last time they operated on Lin Lao, they recovered well last night. In addition, Lin has never experienced any big storms in his life. When he gets old, he is self-cultivation... The postoperative recovery is much better than those with the same case. Because there is no instrument, Li Yunze can only simply check, "what stimulation should be received, and the heart can''t accept it at the moment, resulting in shock under insufficient blood supply." The ambulance came quickly. The wedding, which was still cheerful, suddenly became tense because Lin Lao fainted. Fortunately, the wedding has been completed, and everyone has no regrets. Li Yunze personally went into the emergency room to check old Lin. all the familiar people were waiting outside. "It''s estimated that something happened to the south." Gu Beichen twisted his eyebrows and said to the Dragon owl. The two owls stood at the end of the corridor, shrouded in the treacherous air. Gu Beichen took his mobile phone and called Lin Nannan. Although he knew he couldn''t get through, he still dialed. Sure enough, the answer is still off. "I''ll inquire!" Gu Beichen said, already turned and walked towards Jian mo. "Ah Chen?" Jane Mo frowned and worried. Gu Beichen looked at the crowd. "I''ll deal with something. You watch here. If you have anything, call me." "Yes." Jane Mo answered without asking anything more. Gu Beichen glanced at Xiao Jing lightly. Xiao Jing nodded clearly and left Huakang with Gu Beichen. On the bus, Xiao Jing asked, "Chen Shao, is something wrong with Nan Shao?" "I don''t know." Gu Beichen said faintly, "it''s estimated that eight or nine are inseparable from ten." Then Gu Beichen frowned. "Where are you going now?" Xiao Jing asked. Gu Beichen pondered slightly, "go to the political commissar Fang''s house!" He paused. "No," he frowned and looked out of the window. "Forget it, let''s go to grandma''s friends." Xiao Jing looked at Beichen from the rearview mirror and knew who he was talking about. He answered and drove to his destination. Grandma Gu used to be a member of the military, and her position is not inferior to that of old Lin. Although in the end, Gu Jia gradually separated from the red category, what people now know as Gu Jia is what can call the wind and rain in the mall. But she gradually forgot that in front of grandma Gu, it was also a woman who didn''t let men. Here, because Lin Lao suddenly fainted, he became dignified. At the moment, the atmosphere in Los Angeles prison is also particularly treacherous. "Alas, I really don''t know what this so-called happiness education is?" Wang Xia shook her strong body and looked at Qu Weiwei with a smile in her mouth. There was schadenfreude in her eyes. Qu Weiwei doesn''t have to think about it. Everyone knows that this so-called "happiness education" is related to herself. Although I think it''s ridiculous to do something for her alone in prison. Everyone sat down on the stool. It''s rare that Qu Weiwei was arranged in front this time. She laughed coldly. She was just cold to such an obvious arrangement. If she can''t get out all her life, she can only rely on such hatred to maintain her life day after day. "Well, don''t make any noise!" The prison guard looked at everyone with a cold face and slapped something on the table. The prisoners immediately became quiet. After looking around for a week, the prison guard said slowly, "the main purpose of today''s happiness education is to tell you that some skills are for the benefit of society. Don''t be a heresy all day." As he spoke, his eyes first crossed Qu Weiwei and Meng Yi. "The couple to be released today have just finished their wedding this morning... They are famous in Los Angeles and have made great contributions to society and the country." The prison guard pressed the start button and continued, "Li Yunze and he Yining... I think many people here should be familiar." Qu Weiwei hissed coldly, and her eyes flashed across Meng Yi. Meng Yi and Qu Weiwei haven''t met since they were locked in. Although they occasionally work together, men and women are also divided into regions. It''s the first time that they get together to watch "happiness education" like this. Meng Yi has lost his reserved breath in the past, but after more than half a year, he seems to be in his teens and 20s, and even his hair is mixed with white hair. In black and white, it looks a little bent. Qu Weiwei sneered. She was watching Meng Yi''s joke. What about herself? Without skin care, can her face be seen now? In addition, the car accident didn''t get the final maintenance and treatment, and was bullied by Wang Xia and others. Now she... Doesn''t dare to look in the mirror at all. In his ear, Li Yunze, who is still making contributions to the society and the country, boasts all kinds of things. Naturally, he Yining is also praised. In the early stage of the film, Li Yunze and he Yining deal with medical events together The prison guard suddenly smiled and said, "here is the scene of their wedding today. Let''s bless the new couple!" Wang Xia looked at Qu Weiwei and applauded first. Everyone seemed to be waiting to see Qu Weiwei''s face change. It seemed to be all their fun. Qu Weiwei thought, since I know your purpose today, how can I give you a chance to be happy? However, Qu Weiwei underestimated her mood when she saw Li Yunze and he Yining holding hands on the red carpet, wearing that beautiful Chinese dress and being married by the Minister of health. Her face became distorted, especially when the picture was fixed. When they kissed affectionately, she couldn''t control her scarlet eyes. For what? Why can this bitch become a princess in the eyes of others from childhood? He Yining, even if I die, I will not let you go if I become a fierce ghost! Qu Weiwei''s face is ferocious because of the picture. At the moment, Meng Yi is also gnashing his teeth with anger. He has been in business for so many years, but in the end, he failed! Thinking, he looked at Qu Weiwei It''s all this woman. If it weren''t for her, he wouldn''t be on the verge of success in the end! Thinking of this, Meng Yi''s hostility has covered all his reason. When everyone reflected, Qu Weiwei had been knocked down by Meng Yi who angrily broke through the prison guard line. The sudden situation made everyone unable to react for a moment. When the prison guard reacted, Qu Weiwei''s face was completely blood and looked terrible When the ambulance left the prison, Qu Weiwei was quickly sent to the public security hospital with an oxygen mask on her face. The doctor examined it and said with a sigh in his voice, "it''s no big deal, but... There are cracks in the facial bones. I''m afraid it''s going to disfigure!" "Ah --" When the doctor''s words fell, a sharp cry of panic overflowed Qu Weiwei''s mouth. Chapter 1748 Does vivi look at the doctor with sympathy or not? "You''d better control your emotions," the doctor suggested. "Now there are signs of broken cheekbones on your face. If you move too much, it''s easy to crack. In the end, your face will only be more distorted." "Ah, ah... Ah -" Qu Weiwei not only had no restraint, but also couldn''t control her panic after hearing the doctor''s words. She cried out in fear. The doctor sighed softly, "if you want your face to become distorted and sunken, just keep yelling!" He seemed helpless, "we will only be responsible for your lives. Cosmetic surgery is not within the scope of prison treatment." Qu Weiwei''s whole face was frightened. She wanted to touch her face, but she just met it. It was so painful that it burst. Prison guards are people who know the causes and consequences. Some people take the wrong step. In this life, they really don''t want to turn over. Qu Weiwei provoked people like Li Yunze, and she had already touched the law. The final result... Can only come to a dismal end. ¡­¡­ Gu Beichen listened to grandma Gu''s old friend''s words and frowned slightly, "you mean, it''s an extraordinary time. You''d better not inquire?" "Xiao Chen, I know you and Nan are good brothers. It''s life." The old friend sighed and said, "but I heard that the problem of going south is very complicated... Now, I''m afraid no one can intervene?" Gu Beichen''s eyebrows were already frowned. Although his identity can''t participate too much in the red area, he is generally not sensitive from the perspective of brothers, and grandma''s old friends won''t hide anything from him? The old friend looked at Gu Beichen''s dignified face and handed him a cup of tea. "Try it. This is the Junshan cloud needle my son had just brought back." "OK." Gu Beichen answered and respectfully took over the small tea bowl. After smelling the tea, he drank. Urban people like them now use coffee to refresh themselves... There are not many tea products. More often, to understand, but for the convenience of dealing with the older generation, or some partners who like the tea ceremony. Gu Beichen tasted it carefully. Before he had time to say anything, he saw Xiao Jing come forward and say, "Chen Shao and Li Shao called and said that old Lin is not in serious trouble for the time being, but people haven''t woke up yet!" Gu Beichen nodded slightly, and his face became more and more dignified. Seeing Gu Beichen''s appearance, the old friend thought for a moment and said, "Xiao Chen, although I don''t know what happened..." he poured Gu Beichen another cup of tea, "but there''s a word I still want to advise you." "You say!" Gu Beichen looks at his old friend. The old friend said slowly, "sometimes things, degrees... You have to take care of them. You can''t do something you can''t do because of the relationship between the South and you..." after a pause, he said in earnest, "Chief heroine, it has always been my honor for me to work under her... She has been there for several years. Don''t ruin her reputation." Hearing this, Gu Beichen''s ink pupil gradually became deep. The old friend didn''t say anything more, and Gu Beichen didn''t ask any more. After drinking another cup of tea, he got up and left. On the way back to Huakang hospital, Xiao Jing looked in the rearview mirror. Gu Beichen asked, "Chen Shao, why don''t you just wait until old Lin wakes up?" "That''s all I can do." Gu Beichen said faintly, "the meaning of grandma''s old friend''s words has been very obvious. I''m afraid it''s not light this time." "No!" Xiao Jing wondered, "Nan Shao has been in the army these years. At least half of the Lin family are military and political people, and it is impossible for him to have anything big..." He paused and didn''t go on. If it''s business or something, or if something happens to Lin Nanan in Los Angeles at the moment, with Gu Beichen''s power here, you can still find out more or less. However, Lin Nan is in Yicheng. Unlike Los Angeles, this place is an international metropolis with a combination of politics and business. In that place of Yicheng, although the business is also brilliant, it is not as good as Los Angeles. But it happens that there is a red sensitive area, and the political supremacy is higher than that of Los Angeles Because of this, Gu Beichen in Los Angeles can''t be too involved in the affairs of Yicheng. After arriving at the hospital, the crowd had dispersed. Because the matter is related to Lin Nannan, they don''t have much mind to think about the follow-up of Li Yunze and he Yining''s wedding... But Li Jinxi and Chen Yu still stay in the vineyard and cooperate with Jin shaosi to greet the guests. "What''s going on?" The Dragon owl asked when Gu Beichen came back. Brother Bei Chen shook his head and looked at each other in different degrees. "Do you remember the time when you came back to the South during the Chinese new year?" The Dragon owl said faintly, "I''m afraid it''s not easy since then." The three remembered the time when they "picked things" to the South during the Chinese New Year. He used Shuangfei to win the Dragon owl and Gu Beichen. He said he would promise him one thing in the future... But no one knows what it is. As for Li Yunze, he naturally wants to get something from the south. "Looking at Lin Lao''s appearance, I''m afraid of the problem now..." Li Yunze twisted his eyebrows. "Although Lin Lao''s last operation was successful and the maintenance was good... But he''s getting old in the end. Such a blow is a headache for Lin Lao." "Now we can only wait until old Lin wakes up." The Dragon owl said, suddenly looking at Gu Beichen, "have you contacted uncle Lin?" "I called before and the line has been busy." Gu Beichen said, "I''ll call again." He took his cell phone and called Lin Songnian, Lin Nanan''s father. Unlike Lin Lao in Los Angeles, most of the Lin family are in Yicheng. Los Angeles is the ancestral home of the Lin family. Lin came back to provide for the aged. Lin grew up around Lin when he was a child in the south. After getting familiar with Gu Beichen, he simply grew up here. Except when I went to the military academy, I went to Yicheng. But it happened that the childhood sweetheart was in Los Angeles. After attending the military academy, he didn''t go to the army and returned to Los Angeles... Until Xiaoxiao couldn''t get along with him and was angry to the south, he took the road arranged by Lin Lao and returned to the army. The phone is on! "Uncle Lin, I''m Beichen." Gu Beichen opened his mouth when the phone was connected, "what''s the situation in the South now? The phone has been blocked..." "Stop talking to me about that smelly boy!" On the other side of the phone, Lin Songnian''s angry voice came, "we Lin family can''t get out of such an asshole!" "..." Gu Beichen immediately frowned. Because the other party''s voice was too loud, Li Yunze and long Xiao also heard it. They quickly looked at each other and looked at Gu Beichen Chapter 1749 "Uncle Lin, what is the situation now?" Gu Beichen asked with a slight frown. Lin Songnian gasped on the other side, as if he had calmed his mood before he said something? Seeing that Gu Beichen''s face had changed, Li Yunze and long Xiao looked at each other and frowned one by one, waiting for him to hang up the phone and ask again. "How could..." Gu Beichen seemed not to believe it. "I know the nature of the South best. He won''t do that?" "What can''t he do for Su Xiaoxiao?" Lin Songnian''s voice was full of disappointment under anger and more pain. After Gu Beichen was silent, he asked, "what about the southerners now?" Lin Songnian didn''t know what to say on the phone, and his face became more and more dignified. After hanging up, Li Yunze hurriedly asked, "what happened?" Gu Beichen frowned and said in a worried dignified voice, "I don''t know what I''ve done to the south. I''ve been expelled from the army and I''m at large..." "..." Li Yunze twitched at the corners of his mouth and didn''t know how to react for a moment. The Dragon owl frowned slightly and said faintly, "let Xiao Nan and them check it!" Gu Beichen nodded. Now, it''s really hard for everyone to show up. No matter what happened, Lin Nanan''s current identity is sensitive. It''s likely that they have been stared at In case they find the south, that is, the person staring behind them, indirectly. They have to stay steady until they know what''s going south. "Li Shao," at the right moment, a doctor came over, "someone from the general manager of the army has come to pick up old Lin to the general manager of the army." Li Yunze frowned slightly and looked at Gu Beichen and the Dragon owl. The three went to the general manager of the army. Jian Mo and several women were still worried. Gu Beichen nodded slightly at them. If they wanted to ask, they endured it. "Li Shao!" When the general manager of the army saw Li Yunze coming, he said after greeting, "I heard that old Lin fainted. Let''s come to pick up old Lin." "Old Lin, it''s better to stay here first..." Li Yunze tried to stop, although he knew it was impossible. The general manager of the army was really embarrassed. Aside from the status of a soldier, the people of the military general hospital respect Li Yunze. After all, this man in his thirties is a leader in the industry. "We also know about Mr. Lin, but at present, the general manager of the army must pick up Mr. Lin..." the general manager of the army sighed lightly, "I have an unkind request. Can you accompany me? In case something happens on the road in the past." Lin is always suffering from heart problems. Li Yunze personally performed the operation at the beginning... Coupled with his relationship with Lin Nanan, he has no way to refuse this request. "Send Lin Lao over!" The Dragon owl spoke. Li Yunze looked at him and saw that his face was always calm, as if what happened at the moment could not make any waves for him. Li Yunze looked at Gu Beichen again. Seeing that he also nodded slightly, he took back his sight and answered, "OK." He sighed, "no matter what the situation is now, taking care of his family is also our responsibility as brothers." "Less trouble." The general manager of the army showed gratitude in the eyes and secretly relieved in the heart. In fact, they don''t know what''s going on above. Just after hearing that Lin Lao suddenly fainted, he gave instructions and asked him to come and pick up Lin Lao to the general cultivation of the army. All the dust settled, it was already night. They didn''t leave, so they simply ate in the restaurant of Huakang hospital. Warm and Jane Mo shook he Yining''s hand from the left and behind. They didn''t say anything, but their eyes were worried. Why Ning Zhe''s lips shook his head, "Yunze and I have gone for so many years, and I have nothing to regret when this ceremony is completed..." after a pause, she looked at the three men with dignified faces in varying degrees and sighed, "besides, I''m worried about going south." In fact, when it comes to intimacy and estrangement, why is it better to be simple and warm than to have the best relationship with Lin Nannan. At this moment, her worry has long overshadowed those regrets. She only asked that everyone who played with her when she was a child would be safe! "The general manager of the army took Lin''s past. On the one hand, he was afraid that too many things would be leaked, on the other hand..." the Dragon owl calmly analyzed, "I''m afraid he also wanted to find the south." "Nannan has been doing special things in the army for many years, and the investigation and anti investigation are first-class..." Gu Beichen said, frowning more tightly. "If you really want to hide, not only the Dragon boss, but also the military, I''m afraid it''s difficult to find it." "How can it have something to do with a little?" Li Yunze asked suspiciously. Everyone was silent. Since Nannan proposed on Xiaoxiao''s birthday, but the person didn''t arrive, it can be said that... Su Xiaoxiao disappeared in the circle. Not to mention the south, with the addition of troops, who will take care of the woman?! Sudden events, so that everyone was shrouded in gloom, for a time, because the event was not clear, they suppressed their emotions one after another. At the same time In a temporary rest shed for crops in a small village on the outskirts of Yicheng, Lin gnawed the old corn just broken from the corn field to the south. It looked decadent and sloppy, and there were Stubbles on his mouth. The moonlight is just right, rendering the whole night hazy and extraordinarily quiet. But it is clear that such years are quiet, and the night wind blows gently, which is even more pleasant. However, it is because the lonely figure under the rest shed in such a large crop field makes people feel a little bleak. After eating two corn to the south, Lin looked a little tired. Up to now, he has not had a rest under high mental tension for two days Even though he has strong willpower, he can''t resist the physical sleepiness at the moment. But he can''t sleep. Now he can only take a break, and then... Think about the next step, how he will leave the area of Yicheng under the wide-ranging search. Only by leaving here first can he make plans for the next step. Old corn is used to make coarse grain. After a while, Lin Nannan felt his mouth dry and cracked badly. Fortunately, there is a canal nearby. For him who often has field training and eats insects from time to time, it is a great happiness to have old corn to eat and water to drink. Face in the moonlight, reflected in the canal The spirited Lin looked south at himself who was like a lost dog at the moment. Suddenly, his heart was astringent and a bitter smile crossed the corners of his mouth. Just... He doesn''t regret! He still remembers the mood of standing in front of the tomb at that moment In this life, if he is given another chance to do it again, he will still do the same thing. He doesn''t regret it! Just because of that pain... Only by doing so can it be alleviated a little! Chapter 1750 Ten months ago. There was a heavy snow in Yicheng. The sky and the earth were covered with silver and the cold wind was fierce. It crossed the skin like a knife. Lin Nan, dressed in military uniform, stood in front of an unknown tombstone. His hands trembled badly. He wanted to touch the tombstone, but he didn''t dare to reach up The hot tears suddenly rolled down in the scarlet eyes, crossed the cold skin, and stung the heart stabbed by the cold wind. A gust of wind blew, blowing the floating snow on the pine trees and falling freely Hot tears, but in an instant, became cold on the skin. But how can such coldness compare with the bitterly cold suffering in my heart at the moment? Lin Nan''s hand finally touched the colder tombstone in the cold wind. How long have you not shed tears? Soldiers bleed without tears However, no matter how hard a man is, there is a soft place he can''t touch. Lin Nan bit his teeth and gently stroked the tombstone... He didn''t know until today that she had slept here for a long time, and even a name was not allowed to be engraved. Until the moment of death, she was still shouldering her responsibility Lin hung his head to the South and closed his eyes. In this way, big tears fell on the snow and covered a square inch. Little Sorry, sorry... I misunderstood you for so many years and was angry with you for so many years. It''s all my fault! Clearly we grew up together, clearly we said the future dream together... But why do I think you have changed? You haven''t changed, you''ve always been you... It''s me! Lin Nanan only felt that the position of his heart was constantly pierced by people. The pain of suffocation. Even if he was shot into his body during the mission, he had never had such pain. "Who is it?!" Lin Nan clenched his teeth and squeezed out two words. He suddenly opened his eyes. The bottom of his eyes was scarlet. Looking at the lonely unknown tombstone, the whole person was trembling, "I will not let that person go... I will!" His eyes were filled with anger under despair, just like trapped animals, full of hostility to the whole world. "Captain..." A voice came from not far behind. It was Li Hao, Lin Nannan''s guard. Lin Nan held the tombstone with his big palm. With great strength, his fingers suddenly turned white... As if he could pinch off a corner of the tombstone with another force. Li Hao felt the sadness in the cold weather, sighed and looked at the nameless tombstone. He is with the captain. It can be said that 365 days a year. Except for the occasional annual leave of the captain, he is inseparable from the captain for at least 350 days a year. Naturally, he also knows that the people in this tombstone Su Xiaoxiao, an agent sent by the Security Bureau, seemed to have some disputes when he died... So he couldn''t engrave his name when he died, even with mixed positioning. In fact, such people are undercover. But sometimes there are problems on the line, and they will also have problems. One is, another is... It may also be their own betrayal. Naturally, there is another kind of... The task is found and ends badly. Li Hao sighed and said, "Captain, chief Lang called and asked you to go to him." Lin Nan didn''t speak. He just closed his eyes and swallowed all the pain and anger. When he opened it, he was slightly depressed and asked, "when?" "I didn''t say the specific time, so I told you to find him." Li Hao said carefully. Lin Nan''s eyes fell to the front, "reply to chief Lang, I''ll go to find him tomorrow..." "Yes!" "You go first. I want to be alone..." Lin Nan''s face was still sad. "You drive away." "Do you want to come and pick you up?" Li Hao asked. "No, I''ll go back to the military area myself tomorrow." Lin Nan took back his hand on the tombstone. The beautiful hand was already red with cold. What else does Li Hao want to say? Finally, I think it''s unnecessary to say, "Captain, I''ll go first." "Yes." Lin answered softly to the south, and then heard footsteps stepping on the snow behind him. Lin Nannan didn''t know how long he had been here. It seemed that his body had been frozen stiff for a long time. Then his eyes gently fell on the tombstone again, "Xiao Xiao, no matter who it is... This revenge, Lin Nannan vowed here that he will repay you!" Then he leaned down slowly and gave a soft kiss on the cold tombstone. The stone tombstone is too cold. The warm lips fall on it and are instantly wrapped by the cold breath When Lin left South, he tore the flesh on his lips almost because of the sticky place. He doesn''t feel pain. Because, at the moment, a little person is here alone. His heartache covers everything. Turning around, Lin took his usual steps to the South and walked forward step by step The snow on the ground was trampled out by him one by one. When it was gradually far away from the nameless tombstone, it was pathetic. If love has ever come, it will leave traces like the snow on the ground at the moment... Will the sun come out and eventually melt without a trace?! Lin Nannan doesn''t know. He only knows that there is too much anger in his chest at the moment and there is no place to vent. I took off my military uniform, changed my daily clothes, drove away When passing a cake shop, he suddenly stopped and looked at the volcanic lava cake pasted on the glass of the cake shop. His eyes were deep. He opened the door, got out of the car and entered the cake shop. "What kind of cake do you need?" A clerk came forward and asked with a smile. "Your new volcanic lava cake, wrap one for me..." Lin Nan said faintly. The clerk answered and went to pack the cake. However, his eyes inadvertently looked at Lin Nan with advertising pictures on the door glass. Lin Nan is very tall. With the characteristics of soldiers, even if he stops there at random, he is straight and makes people feel comfortable. Suddenly Lin''s eyes shifted slightly to the south, passed through the glass on the edge of the advertising paper, and looked out at the butt of a car riding a small pedal and stopping with him on the roadside. There came a girl in close contact, with a slight invisible frown. The girl may be because the road is a little slippery. She has just put on the brake and has hit Lin Nannan''s car The girl looked at the sign, grinned secretly, looked left and right, and saw passers-by looking at her one after another. She bit her lower lip. She wanted to hit and run, but now she has no way. When the owner was away, the girl thought for a while. Finally, she had to lower the small pedal, take out the note book from her backpack, attach it to the car, write something on it, and press the paper on the wiper... gfbmmjd6vtlsadjnamr7x + cjfrxmldlwh / zzyo8z5gisjlpbdedigjfyq9n6alntkprnlifskmt6m4khqwjra== After she finished, she rode a small pedal and left... I don''t know at all. All this fell under the eyes of the owner Lin Nan from beginning to end! Chapter 1751 "Your cake is ready, sir." The clerk''s voice came at the right time. Lin looked south, took back from the girl who left, paid the bill, took the cake out of the cake shop. He put the cake in the copilot first, then went under the wiper, took the message note, got on the car, and his eyes fell down "Hello, because the road is slippery in snowy days, I can''t help bumping into your car... Just now a passer-by saw me bumping into your car, and then saw me leave a message for you. I think I left you a phone so that you can find me... However, no!" At the end, there is a tongue sticking face! ¡°¡­¡­¡± Lin Nan looked at the playful words under Juan Xiu''s font, and the corners of his mouth grinned uncontrollably. Lin Nan suddenly felt funny when he thought that the girl had just mounted the small pedal and had not forgotten to spit out her tongue at the car. This note is not for him significant! Lin thought to the South and casually left the note to the co pilot. Unfortunately, it fell on the cake box. ¡­¡­ When ye Ziyu arrived at home, he was still thinking about his accident. She had no money to pay for it, but she was also uneasy. However, people who can afford to drive such a good car should not need money to repair the rear bumper? Ye Ziyu can only comfort himself with this idea. She took a breath, opened the door and entered the room. "Second lady, how did you come back today?" Zhang Ma, the servant, just came out of the kitchen and asked curiously when she saw Ye Ziyu changing shoes. "I came back to find dad," Ye Ziyu said with a smile. "Has dad come back?" "The master and his wife have dinner tonight," replied Zhang. "But you will stay at home tomorrow weekend and meet the master tomorrow." Ye Ziyu smiled, nodded, put his shoes in the shoe cabinet and said, "Mom Zhang, I''ll go back to my room and do my homework first..." "Have something to eat before you go up?" Zhang Ma paused. "I didn''t know you were coming back. They didn''t come back, and they didn''t make dinner... I''ll do it now. When I''m ready, I''ll go upstairs and call you." "Don''t bother." Ye Ziyu said with a smile, "I''ll just go to the kitchen and eat some fruit. It''s just that I don''t eat dinner to lose weight." Zhang''s mother scolded, "there are some cakes made at noon in the kitchen. Please have some by the way." "Good!" Ye Ziyu answered happily and took cakes and fruits upstairs. While ye Ziyu was doing her homework in the room, she was chatting with three other girls in the dormitory on wechat... Suddenly there was a noise outside. She frowned slightly and ignored The sound of high-heeled shoes like that, except for ye Peiyao, Miss Ye Jiada, they don''t think about it. Just Ye Ziyu suddenly stopped beating her mobile phone and frowned slightly... There seemed to be a man''s voice outside in addition to ye Peiyao''s voice. Mainly... She is familiar with the man''s voice. Secretly swallowed, ye Ziyu held his breath, didn''t even think about anything in his mind, so he got up and walked out She just went out and happened to see a figure of a man and a woman enter ye Peiyao''s room. Ye Ziyu told herself not to ask for trouble or provoke ye Peiyao, but she just couldn''t control herself and followed her "Take it easy!" From the door, ye Peiyao''s ambiguous voice came. "Be gentle? You don''t like me best..." the man teased. "Annoying!" Ye Ziyu''s body began to tremble, and her hand gradually clenched up, trying to resist the impulse to open the door She is not a child. Although she has never experienced such a thing, she doesn''t know what happened inside?! Ye Ziyu wanted to escape back to the room, but his feet were like nailing nails. He couldn''t move. In the room, ye Peiyao''s voice of exhortation and anger was mixed with ambiguous breath. Ye Ziyu''s body trembled more and more. The sound in the room made her feel collapsed. "Did ye Ziyu let you touch it?" Ye Peiyao''s voice came from inside. I don''t know what the man said. She ''giggled'' and laughed, "you must not be so hungry!" "She?" The man hissed coldly, "I''m with her only because my grandfather has to take care of her... I don''t understand. Uncle Ye has adopted her and gave her a good life. How can the whole world owe her? Everyone has to take care of her!" "Then tell me, are you with her for the convenience of me... Huh?" Ye Peiyao asked in a charming voice. "Of course!" The man said, "if I come to your house, Grandpa will be happy. You and I don''t have to get in the way of some things and can''t be together..." Inside, with the voice of speaking, mixed with the breath of rough breathing, it is particularly clear under the static overflow outside. Ye Ziyu clenched her hand. She never thought that Tang Luoyan, who was usually gentle and considerate to her and always smiled and said, "when can my little girl grow up and marry me", was such a wild person who got together with his sister? Ye Ziyu didn''t know what he thought, so he suddenly opened the door With a bang, the door was pushed open because it was too big. It suddenly hit the wall and bounced back. Holding them together inside, the two people in ragged clothes were suddenly surprised by the sudden movement. When she saw Ye Ziyu standing at the door, ye Peiyao screamed reflexively, "Ye Ziyu, why are you at home?" "Ziyu?!" Tang Luoyan was obviously surprised to see ye Ziyu. After all, after she went to college, she seldom went home and basically lived in the school dormitory... She worked again during the holidays. Messy clothes, hugging people, quickly separated. Ye Ziyu''s head deviated and his stomach churned. "Now you can see it, and I won''t explain much." Tang Luoyan said, "the person I like is your sister. Being with you is forced by grandpa, so..." Next, ye Ziyu slapped him to stop him. "Ye Ziyu, you''re crazy!" Ye Peiyao snapped immediately. Tang Luoyan''s eyes suddenly became fierce. He was the favored son of the Tang family. When was he slapped by a woman? Ye Ziyu felt Tang Luoyan''s cruelty and subconsciously wanted to retreat, but it was too late. Tang Luoyan suddenly grabbed Ye Ziyu''s slender neck with his big palm, pressed her on the door frame and gnashed his teeth. "Ye Ziyu, dare you hit me?"gfbmmjD6vtLSaDjNAMr7x+cAJfrxmldLwH/ZzyO8z5GisJlPbdeDIGJfyq9N6ALntkPrNLIFSkmT6M4KHQWJrA== Ye Ziyu only felt a sense of instant suffocation. Her eyes turned red and looked at the handsome man in front of her. "Tang Luoyan, since you don''t like me... You shouldn''t provoke me!" Chapter 1752 Tang Luoyan looked at Ye Ziyu''s tearful eyes and bleak words, which suddenly made his heart tighten. I can''t tell what that feeling is, but it seems to be suffocating. Just like Ye Ziyu who is under his command now Suddenly! Tang Luoyan let go of Ye Ziyu. It was only a moment and frowned again, as if he didn''t know what he was doing at the moment. Ye Ziyu''s eyes were full of tears, but he stubbornly refused to let the tears fall. Even though she was so sad, she noticed the provocation under the ridicule of Ye Peiyao''s eyes at the moment. Ye Ziyu clutched his hands, and his eyes seemed to blink gently, so he couldn''t bear the tears in his eyes. Tang Luoyan couldn''t seem to see her stubborn appearance at the moment. He said coldly, "it''s clear. What are you waiting for me to say? Or, what else do you want?" "Ha ha!" Ye Ziyu smiled, a little sad but beautiful. "I don''t need pity. Since I don''t love me, why did I have to?" Her eyes, in the end, could not bear the full tears, overflowed and rolled on the skin, and fainted at the corners of her mouth. "Tang Luoyan, I''m so stupid..." Ye Ziyu smiled more and more sadly. "I shouldn''t take your acting as a reality, and then... Fall in love with you!" Does it hurt? Shame? Or... When you say "love", let ye Peiyao and Tang Luoyan see a joke. It doesn''t matter. Ye Ziyu slowly got up from the door frame she was leaning against. She didn''t say anything, but her eyes crossed and looked at her ye Peiyao coldly, and turned and left Here, no matter in the eyes of Ye Peiyao or Tang Luoyan, she is just an outsider! Originally, ye Ziyu thought he could straighten his back and leave proudly as they watched. But she overestimated herself, but she only took two or three steps. If she couldn''t stand it, she ran away Behind him, ye Peiyao''s voice came, "ah Yan, now we don''t need to be sneaky, and it''s not difficult for you to tell her." Whether Tang Luoyan spoke or not, ye Ziyu didn''t know. She just hurried into the room and hurriedly packed up her things. Regardless of the purpose of coming back today, she hurried away with her backpack Tang Luoyan stood still. At first, when ye Ziyu turned and left, his heart tightened. Then he looked down at the hand that had just pinched her neck... Until she ran away from Ye''s villa. "Ah Yan?" Ye Peiyao slightly twisted her eyebrows and felt inexplicably flustered. Tang Luoyan glanced at her, put his hand around her waist, pulled to himself, gently kissed her forehead and eyebrows, and said in a charming voice: "Ziyu found your relationship with me. It seems that I have to go back and deal with it... It''s time to officially announce our relationship." As soon as ye Peiyao heard this, she was happy, slightly raised her head and kissed the man on the chin, "ah Yan, I''ll wait for you." "Yes!" After Tang Luoyan said something, he let go of Ye Peiyao, "I''ll go back first." "OK." Ye Peiyao smiled and sent Tang Luoyan away. At the moment of closing the door, the charm on her face gradually converged. ¡­¡­ Ye Ziyu was crying and riding a small pedal on the road Suddenly, at a corner, the tire skidded on the snow, and she fell to the ground with her car and people. Ye Ziyu didn''t move, but let the small pedal press on her. The cold wind made her tears on her cheeks suddenly cool. However, such a cool, but there is no way to cover up the desolation of the heart. She thought her father adopted her and she was part of the family Originally, never. Ye Peiyao has never regarded her as her sister, and the man she loves is with her, just because under the pressure of Grandpa Tang, she has no choice ha-ha! While she was sleeping with ye Peiyao, she took her hand and whispered softly to her... Tang Luoyan, don''t you think such behavior is disgusting?! The glare of the headlights crossed her line of sight. Under the reflection of the snow light, it hurt Ye Ziyu''s eyes, and she suddenly closed it. I felt the car stopped in the rear, and then someone got out of the car and came over. Stepping on the snow, some people seep in the quiet space. But ye Ziyu didn''t want to think about anything at this moment. Ye Peiyao and Tang Luoyan saw jokes. Is she still afraid of others? "Zi Yu..." At the same time, a warm big palm was put on Ye Ziyu, trying to pull her up. Ye Ziyu opened his eyes and was stunned to see Tang Luoyan. Shouldn''t he continue to fall in love with ye Peiyao? How did you show up here? ha-ha! She is distressed. Has she hallucinated? Tang Luoyan looked at his own Ye Ziyu, slightly frowning, "get up!" Ye Ziyu suddenly woke up and saw that it was really Tang Luoyan. If he wanted to ask "how are you here", he went to his mouth and swallowed it back. As soon as he got rid of Tang Luoyan''s help, ye Ziyu didn''t say anything. He picked up the small pedal and left Tang Luoyan stood where he was and looked at Ye Ziyu''s figure leaving. He clenched his hand slightly. He only felt that there was an indescribable emotion in his chest. Obviously, I hope she won''t pester the best after saying it, but why... When she behaved like this, he had a strange emotion in his heart?! Thinking, ye Ziyu''s "ah" came, and because the road was slippery, even the man with the car fell to the ground. The tears that had stopped suddenly overflowed again. She got up in a panic, regardless of the pain on her body, and wanted to pick up the car. However, I don''t know whether she was in a hurry or whether the ground was really too slippery. Her car fell down again before she got up Tang Luoyan hurried forward and helped Ye Ziyu pick up the car. "I''ll take you back to school." "No!" Ye Ziyu said coldly and didn''t ride anymore, so he pushed the small pedal forward. Even at every step, she walked very heavily. The next day, the weather was gloomy for several days, and it was important to welcome the sunshine. The snow on the roadside seems to be melting. Lin Nan, dressed in neat military uniforms, drove back to the military region and went directly to Lang Xiaolin''s chief office. "Report!" "Come in!" Lin Xiang went south into the office. After saluting Lang Xiaolin, he regained his usual casual appearance. Without greeting, he sat down and took a sip of Lang Xiaolin''s freshly brewed tea. "Good tea!" Lang Xiaolin squinted, "no rules!" He hummed, "a person who likes to drink Coke Sprite all day and knows tea?" Lin Nan raised his eyebrows and smiled, "don''t I make you happy?" "Hum!" Lang Xiaolin snorted again, but the corners of his mouth obviously overflowed with a smile, "you boy, you are slippery." "What does the chief want from me?" Lin grinned to the south. Lang Xiaolin looked at Lin Nannan in amazement, then turned around as if his face was a little dignified, took out a sealed file bag from the safe and put it in front of Lin Nannan, "look!" Chapter 1753 Looking at the head Lang''s face, Lin twisted his eyebrows to the south, put the general''s hat aside, took the file bag and opened it "What? Your face is thicker than the snow." Lin Xiangnan took out the things while joking. He looked at it page by page, with information and photos. "What task is this?" Lin turned his eyebrows to the South and looked at chief Lang. Lang Xiaolin didn''t dislike Lin Nannan either. He took the cup he had just drunk to get the water. After drinking, he said, "special task!" "Special?" Lin Nan ''hehe'', flipped the information again, and Liangliang said, "it''s really... ''special''!" Lang Xiaolin didn''t mind the sarcasm in his words. He always gives them the greatest space for people with ability and pride. "There was a meeting above. It was originally suggested that Wei Chen should be responsible for this task," Lang Xiaolin continued after sitting down opposite Lin Nan. "But Wei Chen''s situation is actually not allowed. It''s not as good as you." Lin Nan didn''t answer. "However, it also depends on your wishes." Lang Xiaolin''s voice was faint. "If you don''t want to go, we''ll study the staff later." Lin Nan still didn''t speak. He just looked at the picture inside and frowned slightly. What was flashing at the bottom of his eyes?! "This task is contrary to Chang Lun..." Lin Nan said coldly, put down the picture and looked at Lang Xiaolin. Lang Xiaolin''s face became more and more dignified and silent. He said slowly: "sometimes, for the happiness and safety of more people, some people have to sacrifice, they can only give up the small and take the big..." he paused slightly. He took out a cigarette and handed it to Lin Nannan. Then he grabbed a fulcrum and lit it. "Nannan, I know it''s difficult for you to let you see this thing." "But you''re still embarrassed." Lin Nan sneered. Lang Xiaolin grinned and wanted to knock the boy on the head. He was a lieutenant general after all. He was dealt with like this by a boy who was only 29 years old. He had no face for both public and private. Lin Nannan didn''t seem to see the changing face of head lang. he casually left the data bag on the table, leaned slowly against the chair and said, "do you want to answer it or not?" "What if I say this is an order?" Lang Xiaolin asked. Lin Nan was still holding an unlit cigarette in his hand. As soon as he heard it, his hot temper came up, "what about Mao? Military orders are like mountains. Can I disobey them?" "..." Lang Xiaolin pulled again from the corner of his mouth and looked at the handsome and well deserved military ruffian in front of him. He loved and hated him. "Although it was decided by the above, such a thing, if unwilling, is always bad." Lang Xiaolin said, "besides, what I need to tell you is that this task can''t be controlled by one degree. It''s likely that... Your life will be ruined." Lin hissed at the corner of his mouth. "So, whether you accept it or not depends on yourself!" Lin Nan was silent and his eyes fell slightly on the file bag. "But..." Lang Xiaolin said, suddenly his voice stopped, as if he was not sure whether to say it. Lin Nan closed his eyes on the file bag and looked at him, "but what?" Lang Xiaolin sighed deeply. After flicking the ash, he looked south at Shanglin and said slowly, "it''s possible that the person you''re thinking about will be related to this task!" Lin Nan suddenly gathered his eyes, and a touch of cruelty appeared in the depths of his eyes. "This is my personal guess, so there is no..." the old chief who has always planned strategies seems to be very tangled in his heart. "To the south, I want you to take this task because you are the most suitable candidate... Whether it''s your own ability or external conditions." He sighed again, "but personally, I don''t want you to take it... If I really want to compensate you in the end, I think the gain is not worth the loss." The state can train many talents, but officers like Lin Nanan, who are top-notch in brain and action, can not be found. If the mission really falls down because of this, and even personal feelings may control the behavior, it will really make people regret. "I''ll take it!" Lin Nanan''s voice was very calm. Different from the tangle of chief Lang, his eyes were as sharp as a cheetah. "You''d better go back and think about it!" Lang Xiaolin frowned, "if you take this task because of her, I think you have failed without starting." Lin Nan snorted with a sneer, "didn''t you mention her because you knew, because I could find out the cause of her death, and I was bound to take this task?" The sarcastic words are not a subordinate''s attitude towards the superior. Lin Nannan didn''t care. He just got up, picked up his military cap, put it on, saluted Lang Xiaolin, turned and left "South!" The voice came from behind. Lin stopped to the south, but didn''t look back. "We don''t participate in the progress and means of your task. You can control the degree." Lang Xiaolin''s voice paused, "remember, once this task deviates, no one will help you!" Lin glanced back with a slight deviation of his sight to the south. He didn''t say anything and walked away. Lang Xiaolin looked at the file bag still on the table and knew the contents and characters. Lin Xiangnan had already remembered them, so he took them to the shredder and smashed them all. For the sake of safety, he put the crushed materials into the porcelain basin, lit the fire and burned them all. Took the landline and dialed the number two leader''s phone, "silver fox answered the task and began to start the plan!" ¡­¡­ Lin returned to the special combat brigade to the south. The snow on the ground in the military region has long been cleaned up, and the people of the special combat brigade are in routine training, regardless of the heat and cold. The sight fell on the words painted on the wall... Land tigers, sea dragons, eagles in the air, and the forest looked deep to the south. He will take this task, both public and private! "Captain," Li Hao ran over, "what do I think of the rear of your car being hit?" Lin glanced at the guard and made a faint ''um'' sound. Li Hao scratched his head and looked at Lin Nan suspiciously. The captain''s mother is in the mall and does a big job. The captain loves cars and loves cars like ordinary men on weekdays. This Land Rover is a new model given by the captain''s mother a while ago. It doesn''t matter how it was hit? Lin Nan took out the key and threw it out. Li Hao caught it inertia and listened to him say: "drive to the repair team to repair..." "Oh..." Lin said to the South and walked forward, "I''ll find the brigade commander." "Yes!" Li haomu took Lin south for a while before taking the key to repair the car. Lin Nan looked for brigade commander Ma Honghai, "brigade commander, I want to take a vacation." "Oh?" As soon as Ma Honghai heard it, he was happy. "You boy, the old chief has called me several times. Last time, even when you had an operation, you didn''t go back because of a task... It''s really the first time you took the initiative to take a vacation!" Lin Nan ruffian said, "I''m afraid if I don''t go back this time, grandpa won''t let me go back..." paused, "besides, my third brother''s daughter is going to have a baby, and I have to see my second brother''s daughter, don''t I? So I have to go back and have a look!" Chapter 1754 On the other side of Los Angeles, Ma Honghai, Lin Nanan''s brothers, has heard of them. After all, Gu Beichen''s economic status in China can not be ignored. Li Yunze has pushed the domestic medical community to a peak... The newly developed medicine has not only applied for international patents, but also made a breakthrough. As for another person, his identity seems to be true or false. It is said that he is the person behind Yadong bank. It is also said that he is the younger generation of the royal family in Longdao However, these things are involved in some aspects, and we naturally tacitly don''t know. "How long are you going to rest?" Ma Honghai asked. "About half a month!" Lin Nan said after pondering. "I''ll give you a month," said Ma Honghai. "When you return to the team, look and think about it yourself..." paused. "Before you leave, you''ve arranged the people on your team." "Yes!" Lin answered to the South and turned away. Lin Nannan''s current military rank is the same as that of Ma Honghai. He is a senior colonel of 24 cents. However, they have different responsibilities. Lin Nannan still needs to report to Ma Honghai and get approval for some things... For example, taking a vacation. ¡­¡­ Ye Ziyu covered his quilt and listened to the rustle in his ear. He didn''t want to move at all. "Leaf, let''s go shopping. Do you want to go?" Song Lanlan, who lives in the same dormitory, asked, "wait for Mo ran and Xiao Qin to come back from class." This four person dormitory is a mixed accommodation. Zhou Moran and Wang Xiaoqin are from the Chinese Department, song Lanlan is from the media department, and ye Ziyu is from the foreign language department. Her dream is to be a simultaneous translator. At worst, she can translate materials and books. She majored in German and took French in addition to English. "Lan Lan, I''m a little uncomfortable. I won''t go." Ye Ziyu still covered the quilt and had a terrible headache. "Tell me about you. You''ve all gone back. You have to rush back to the dormitory so late..." Song Lanlan went to pour a glass of water and put it on the small table set up by Ye Ziyu''s bed. "When you come back in the evening, you''re red in the nose, swollen in the face and wrestling." Ye Ziyu thought of the ambiguous scene between Tang Luoyan and ye Peiyao in his mind last night. His empty stomach suddenly churned and retched. "Leaf, are you okay?" Song Lanlan twisted her eyebrows and looked at Ye Ziyu with only long hair scattered outside the quilt. "I''m fine. I guess I just caught a cold..." Ye Ziyu closed her eyes tightly for fear that she would leak her mood as soon as she opened it. "I''ll just take some medicine later." "All right!" Song Lanlan sighed and thought, "just as they didn''t come back, I''ll go to the canteen and get you some hot food to eat." "Well, OK! Thank you, honey!" Ye Ziyu didn''t dare to refuse. She was afraid that if she held on for a while longer, song Lanlan would see something about her mood. The sound of closing the door came. Almost at the same time, ye Ziyu''s closed eyes overflowed with fatigue and scalded his skin. She seemed to walk smartly last night, but in fact... She was in pain. She thought that even if the Ye family was not her own home, Tang Luoyan would give her a home of her own. She even thought that having a decent job after graduation would not make him lose face But in the end? It''s all fake! His tenderness is false, his doting is false... From beginning to end, only her love for him is true. But he disdained it! Because he loves ye Peiyao! Ye Ziyu wiped his tears, but the more he wiped them, the more he could not stop. Suddenly When the door was opened, song Lanlan''s smiling voice came, "I said Ye, if I were so considerate as your boyfriend, shit, I think I can laugh in my dreams... Ye, what''s the matter with you? Why are you crying? Is there something uncomfortable and uncomfortable?" She anxiously put down the things in her hand and hurriedly said, "get up and I''ll take you to the school medical room." "I''m fine..." Ye Ziyu''s tears finally fell in front of song Lanlan because she couldn''t avoid it. She took a deep breath and sat up. "What did you just say?" Song Lanlan looked at Ye Ziyu suspiciously. Seeing that she seemed to hide her mind and didn''t want to say more, she sighed secretly and didn''t ask more, "I just went downstairs and saw Tang Luoyan coming with a heat preservation box in his hand... At the moment, the person is still downstairs and said to let you go down to find him after drinking the soup!" "..." Ye Ziyu frowned downstairs, got out of bed and went to the small balcony. He looked down and saw Tang Luoyan standing tall and straight. The Tang family is a red family. Tang Luoyan came out of the military academy before. Although he didn''t join the army in the end, his breath was formed. Biting his lower lip, ye Ziyu suddenly felt ridiculous. What is he? You can''t suddenly find out last night that it''s just physical fun between him and ye Peiyao. In fact, she is the one you love in the end? Dog blood! isn''t it? Tang Luoyan seemed to feel his eyes and looked up at Ye Ziyu. They seemed stunned, but soon Ye Ziyu got up and went back to the dormitory. Tang Luoyan frowned slightly, took out his mobile phone and dialed Ye Ziyu''s number. Ye Ziyu didn''t want to answer, but because song Lanlan was there, she didn''t want to be known. Her boyfriend and sister slept. She endured and had to answer. She didn''t speak, and Tang Luoyan didn''t speak. After a few seconds of silence, he said, "wash and drink some soup. Grandma boiled it and asked him to send it..." paused, "Ziyu, after drinking, I have something to say!" Ye Ziyu bit his lip, "I have nothing to say!" Tang Luoyan frowned slightly, "then I can only go up to you..." "..." Ye Ziyu glanced at Song Lanlan''s puzzled sight, glanced at the corner of his mouth, endured his inner suffocation and said, "first go to the milk tea shop I often go to and wait for me. I washed and went to find you." "OK, I''ll wait for you." Tang Luoyan paused. "Ziyu, I''ll wait for you for an hour. If you don''t come..." he sighed softly, "you know, I have a way to know where you are?" Ye Ziyu sneered in her heart. If song Lanlan hadn''t been taken into account, she would like to ask: don''t you think it''s ridiculous that he''s talking so ambiguous now? After hanging up, song Lanlan asked, "did you quarrel with Tang Luoyan?" Ye Ziyu didn''t know how to explain, so he could only nod. "Don''t be such a nice man..." Song Lanlan rolled her eyes. "She was seduced away by other women. You cried!" Ye Ziyu''s heart was desolate. She has been seduced away, and she does have to cry. After washing, ye Ziyu went to the milk tea shop without drinking soup. Seeing that the man had ordered her favorite Shuangpin milk tea, ye Ziyu only felt that her nose was very sour. "If you have anything to say, say it!" Ye Ziyu sat down and watched the man poke open the milk tea for her. Tang Luoyan pushed the milk tea in front of Ye Ziyu, and his eyes fell deeply on her face. Looking at her red and swollen eyes, he couldn''t bear it, but said after all: "Ziyu, I need you and grandpa to say we''re separated..." he paused, as if it''s hard for him to say, "you want to separate us!" Chapter 1755 Ye Ziyu looked at the man opposite and suddenly felt that this was a big joke! Looking at her like this, Tang Luoyan laughed at himself and said, "I know it''s difficult for you, but... I don''t want to wrong Yao while playing with you." "So, you can watch my jokes coldly while you''re in the dark with her... Right?" Ye Ziyu sneered coldly. Tang Luoyan frowned slightly, "Ziyu..." "Tang Luoyan," Ye Ziyu interrupted Tang Luoyan and said coldly, "you want me to tell Grandpa Tang that I want to break up with you... You dream!" She gnashed her teeth. "Why should your happiness be based on my pain?" Tang Luoyan looked at Ye Ziyu and tightened his eyebrows. Ye Ziyu looked disappointed at the man opposite, smiled and said, "Tang Luoyan, do you think it''s you who are wronged because you are with me, Grandpa Tang?" Tang Luoyan''s mouth moved and wanted to say something. However, seeing the gradually diffuse emotion at the bottom of Ye Ziyu''s eyes, he couldn''t say anything. This feeling, like the gray color of her eyes when I pinched her neck last night, pulled his heart. "You are looking at me coldly and smiling at you foolishly," Ye Ziyu smiled, but the bottom of his eyes was sad. "Watching me fall step by step and sink into your doting and gentle trap of being nice to me... Have you ever thought about my grievance?" "You let me complete you and ye Peiyao, you can..." Ye Ziyu sneered. "I quit, I won''t pester you! But you asked me to help you tell Grandpa Tang that I want to break up with you... You have done good people. Have you ever thought about my feelings?" "Of course, you don''t want to! Because you don''t love me, you''re not me in your heart, and you''re even tired of me because of Grandpa Tang''s coercion... How can you consider my feelings?" Ye Ziyu''s face began to get cold. "Tang Luoyan, you''re a man. Just solve the problem yourself. Don''t let me think that after you get together with me ye Peiyao, you''re broken and then broken again!" When the words fell, ye Ziyu got up, looked coldly at Tang Luoyan and turned away. "Ziyu..." Tang Luoyan twisted his eyebrows, looked at the milk tea on the table, picked it up and chased out, "this!" Ye Ziyu looked at him and at the milk tea in his hand, and suddenly felt ironic. He knows everything she likes to eat. No matter where she goes, she never needs to worry, because he has arranged everything How can a person who doesn''t love another know all the preferences of that person? Ye Ziyu explored his hand, slowly took it, looked at the floating Black Pearl and mango pudding inside, smiled... Raised her eyes, and when Tang Luoyan felt something, she hit him directly. The plastic paper suddenly cracked due to gravity. The milk tea not only splashed Tang Luoyan, but ye Ziyu himself was not spared. Tang Luoyan''s face suddenly became gloomy. A pair of eyes stared at Ye Ziyu tightly. Ye Ziyu smiled, "are you very angry?" She raised her eyebrows. "Tang Luoyan, think about when you sprinkled your own things on ye Peiyao''s body... What''s my mood?" Tang Luoyan''s face changed in an instant. "Not angry," Ye Ziyu sneered. "It''s disgusting!" When ye Ziyu finished, he turned and walked to the school. Fortunately, although today is the weekend, because it''s too cold outside, it''s not a time to look for food. There are not many people outside. But what if it''s seen? What else can she say when her sister pries the corner? Ye Ziyu didn''t go back to school. She went through the school gate and went to another road. She planned to enter through another door... She just wanted to walk alone and calm down. Unfortunately, after knowing that Tang Luoyan and ye Peiyao were together last night, her world has been in chaos. "Ye Ziyu, stop!" Behind him came a cry of discontent. Ye Ziyu took a deep breath and turned around. There was no time to say, "pa", and the crisp slap had fallen on his face. There were students passing by and looked at them in amazement. Ye Ziyu bit his teeth and glared at ye Peiyao. "You have lived in Ye''s family for so many years with your dead parents. Your father and mother have raised you so much. Do you still have to rely on your dead parents to find a man?" Ye Peiyao''s words were particularly unpleasant, "ah Yan doesn''t like you. You know he is filial, so you''re not going to get it yourself and make it easier for me and ah Yan, right?" The burning pain on his face only made Ye Ziyu feel ridiculous. "Why, now I''m a junior. Are they all as arrogant as you?" Ye Ziyu looked at ye Peiyao coldly. She and her sister had not been together since they arrived at Ye''s house. "Who do you say is junior?" Ye Peiyao gnashed her teeth. Ye Ziyu looked at ye Peiyao coldly, "no matter why Tang Luoyan and I are together, it is an indisputable fact that you seduce your brother-in-law and go to his bed." She sneered, "ye Peiyao, I don''t need Ye Ziyu''s reluctant feelings... But I won''t sacrifice myself to fulfill other people''s stupid behavior!" She touched her beaten cheek, "this slap is in dad''s face!" Ye Ziyu gritted his teeth and turned to leave. "Ye Ziyu, aren''t you short of money?" Ye Peiyao''s cold voice came from behind. "You went back yesterday. Should you want to borrow money from your father?" Ye Ziyu suddenly stopped. Last night, because of something unexpected, she left sadly. Today, she hasn''t adjusted her state of mind or called her father. What happened now again. Turning around, she looked at ye Peiyao and heard her say, "your mother Xiaohua will spend a lot of money in the hospital this time? The little orphanage, in addition to you, the oldest child in the past went to college and couldn''t get together the medical expenses at all, so you didn''t take money from your father for a long time. You wanted to borrow money from your father last night!" "So what?" Ye Ziyu gritted his teeth. "I''m sorry, I just came out from home and said I missed my mouth when I had breakfast with my father..." ye Peiyao smiled darkly at the corner of her mouth, "say you''re going to ask for money for your little flower mother!" "You!" Ye Ziyu immediately clenched his teeth. "You say," said Ye Peiyao with a smile, "why does Dad hate your little flower mother so much?" Ye Ziyu''s angry body trembled and his hand clenched, "ye Peiyao, what do you want?" "How?" Ye Peiyao walked forward slowly, and said in a threatening voice, "I want you to go to Grandpa Tang and say that you are in love with another man and you want to break up with Tang Luoyan!" "You dream!" Ye Ziyu subconsciously refuted. "Oh?" "It seems that you want to be discharged from the hospital, Pei Yao, too." Paused, "Ye Ziyu, even if you get the money, I have a way to make your little flower mother have no way to get treatment!" Sen Leng''s words are merciless. Ye Ziyu''s body seemed to be evacuated at once. She looked at ye Peiyao angrily and powerlessly... Because she knew that this "sister" had this ability. "OK..." Ye Ziyu clenched his hand, "I promise you!" Chapter 1756 Ye Peiyao smiled coldly. She was not worried at all that ye Ziyu would not agree. Her little flower mother''s orphanage, because there are no formal procedures, can not get the help of all parties, so it can only be maintained by some private sources. In the past, when Xiaohua''s mother was in good health, she could be better. Over the years, her body had already broken down The problem of kidney can''t be solved by small numbers. Looking at ye Peiyao like this, ye Ziyu only felt desolate in his heart. She doesn''t know why her father hates Xiaohua''s mother so much. After all, her father can find her at last, thanks to Xiaohua''s mother. But anyway, as long as ye Peiyao tells her father what she wants money for... Her father will certainly not give it. She can only compromise! ha-ha! I just threw milk tea on Tang Luoyan, but now I have to compromise in front of Ye Peiyao... Ye Ziyu, admit it, you have always been weak. With a "whoosh" sound, a car passed by the roadside. A gust of wind shook some of the floating snow on the branches and fell on Ye Ziyu in the sun. It was particularly moving. However, this moving, showing a desolate. Lin Nan didn''t expect that he would meet the girl who hit his car yesterday just to find a way out of the traffic jam Retracting his sight on the reversing mirror, Lin smiled at the corner of his mouth and turned the steering wheel to leave. The car phone rang in time. Lin Nan pressed the answer button, "Mom, I''ll be there in a minute... Half an hour at most!" "Why should it take half an hour for you to come earlier?" Corning''s dissatisfied voice came. Lin Nan had a headache. "There are things in my team. You have to be considerate of me!" "Yes, you let me understand you, and your father let me understand him..." Corning''s voice was more dissatisfied. "I''m the only one to worry about feelings, right?" Lin Nan smiled at the corners of his mouth and listened to his mother talking about how miserable he was. After a while, he said, "Mom, I really sympathize with those people under you... You''re like a Tang monk!" "..." Kang Ning was stunned and then scolded angrily, "smelly boy, just make fun of your mother." Lin Nan smiled again and looked at the Pinxiang building in front of him. "Hang up, see you later!" "Yes." Lin hung up the phone to the South and hung up the car to the nearby parking lot. It''s a business district away from here, and Pinxiang restaurant is the oldest signature restaurant in Yicheng. It''s sheer luck to find a parking space here. After parking the car, Lin went south to Pinxiang building, the box Kang Ning said. As soon as I pushed the door in, I saw only three people sitting in such a large box. Mother, there is also a lady with long hair and a shawl. She looks good. She is the daughter of a rich family. Lin Nan looked at Corning discontentedly. However, his mother completely ignored his anger. "Is this the south?" The lady smiled and said, "I''ve heard about the young master of the Lin family for a long time. I just saw him today. He''s really a talent." "Good aunt!" Although Lin Nanan was dissatisfied with his mother''s dating Bureau, he said hello politely, but his attitude was a little lukewarm. When Kangning sat down in Linnan, he had polite words with the lady, "Nannan, this is aunt Shuqin, your uncle Tang''s wife, and this is her daughter Tang Lu." "Hello!" Lin Nan still said hello lukewarm. Tang Lu nodded with a smile, "Hello!" The atmosphere was a little awkward, but in the expert of Corning shopping mall, with that mouth, she could talk from beginning to end alone. Although Lin Nannan is dissatisfied, he is not lacking in politeness. After a meal, he showed that he would not further develop with Tang Lu, and he was not too rude. Unfortunately, as soon as Tang Lu came in from Lin Nan, she took a fancy to this man who was full of ruffian and righteous spirit. She had never seen a man who could combine righteousness and ruffian Qi, but there was no contradiction at all. "Aunt, I''ll go south with you." Tang Lu''s generous invitation. As soon as Kang Ning heard this, he immediately smiled and blossomed, ignoring the eyes Lin Nannan handed her, and repeatedly said, "Nannan, take good care of Xiao Lu, you know?" "..." Lin Nan really wanted to take his mother as his soldier and put her directly in the confinement room. "South, let''s go!" Tang Lu already took her bag and got up. Lin Nannan thought about it. It''s not very embarrassing for the girl''s family. He wanted to make it clear when he went out. He simply got up, said hello to LAN Shuqin and left with Tang Lu. "Don..." "You want to tell me that you and I are impossible, right?" Tang Lu looked at Lin with a smile on her eyebrows when she spoke to the south. "Now that you see it, I don''t think I need to say anything more." Lin Nan breathed a sigh. Tang Lu smiled at the bottom of her eyes, but it was fleeting. "I''m also very upset about my mother''s forcing me to date. I''m only 24 years old. Will I be too anxious?" She was angry and stretched out her hand, "get to know Tang Lu again." "Lin Nan!" Lin Nan politely shook her hand. Tang Lu pays attention to Lin Nanan''s actions. He is a soldier, with the toughness and arrogance of soldiers, but also the natural gentleman behavior of a good family. With a smile in her mouth, Tang Lu picked her eyebrow and said, "would you mind going shopping with me? I''m afraid my mother will call me later. I can''t go far. Just go around!" "OK." Lin Nan thought that his mother would call him later, so he simply accompanied Tang Lu to the mall next door. The mall is the Feilong department store under the Dragon Empire, which gathers all kinds of luxury goods from all over the world. When shopping, Lin Nan gentleman took the card to check out, but Tang Lu disagreed. "If you are my boyfriend now, I will give you the chance to behave like this." Tang Lu said half jokingly, "but if I''m just a friend, I can''t accept it." Beautiful, intellectual and artificial This is Lin Nannan''s evaluation of Tang Lu at the moment, although it is only superficial. However, his attitude towards women has always been very clear. It''s different from the third brother holding his wife but can''t see his feelings for his wife. It''s also different from the second brother. It took 20 years to react with his second sister-in-law He likes women and studies them. If he doesn''t like them, he is a casual friend. ¡­¡­ The sunshine in winter always moves west quickly. Ye Ziyu sat in Tang Luoyan''s car and looked at the passing street view outside the car. The corners of his mouth were completely sneering. "Zi Yu..." "Please call me miss Ye!" Ye Ziyu interrupted coldly, "Mr. Tang, I will cooperate with you to finish the play today. Since then, we are strangers." The cold voice and resolute attitude suddenly pressed Tang Luoyan''s heart. He didn''t know what was wrong with himself. On the way to the courtyard, he suddenly put on the brake. Ye Ziyu was caught off guard. If it wasn''t for the seat belt, I''m afraid someone would have knocked on the workbench. Tang Luoyan suddenly pulled Ye Ziyu''s body and forced her to look at him with a gloomy voice, "Ye Ziyu, are you so eager to get rid of my relationship?" Chapter 1757 "Tang Luoyan, are you crazy?" Ye Ziyu roared, "you and ye Peiyao are together. Now let me come back to play for Grandpa Tang... Now it''s my hurry to get rid of your relationship?" She couldn''t control her tone and shouted, "do you want to get rid of me, or do I want to get rid of you?" Tang Luoyan grabbed Ye Ziyu''s shoulder blade and suddenly released it. It seemed that at this moment, he reflected the fact of the matter! Ye Ziyu sneered, "Tang Luoyan, if you want to separate, just..." she looked at him contemptuously, "don''t be with me, you said your favorite person is your sister, but when I want to leave you, you came to tell me that the person you care about most in your heart is me!" Tang Luoyan''s heart was suddenly knocked down, as if he were impetuous this day, and suddenly understood why? "Put away your face," Ye Ziyu sneered. "Then the dog blood bridge is not suitable for you and me, and I will only think you are more scum!" Ye Ziyu, who would be in front of him every day and was called by Luo Yan, treated each other coldly all day. He had already blocked Tang Luoyan''s heart. At this moment, listening to her cold words again, he suddenly had an impulse not to go home. He thought it was good However, when he saw Ye Ziyu''s cold and contemptuous eyes, Tang Luo tightened his eyes. Is he really scum?! "Tang Luoyan, are you going or not?" Ye Ziyu looked back. "If you don''t go, please tell ye Peiyao that it''s not my problem. Remember to give me the money!" "You need money, I''ll give it to you!" Tang Luoyan said suddenly and eagerly. "No!" Ye Ziyu said coldly, "the world is very fair. I need to exchange things for what I want..." "I don''t need you to change!" Tang Luoyan frowned. Ye Ziyu felt funny, and she did laugh. Tang Luoyan felt that such a smile was dazzling, and suddenly remembered what his purpose was today and what he just said. Secretly mocking himself, Tang Luoyan sat upright, "I''m sorry..." "No!" Ye Ziyu is still indifferent. Tang Luoyan glanced at her and finally started the car and drove to the house where grandpa Tang lived in the courtyard It''s cold outside, but the air conditioner in the car is warm, making people feel sleepy. Ye Ziyu thought, that''s it! At least, for the health of Xiaohua''s mother, isn''t it?! As usual, ye Ziyu and Tang Luoyan talked and laughed with Grandpa Tang and grandma Tang after dinner, and then she deliberately looked like she wanted to stop talking, so that Grandpa Tang could see what she wanted to say? "Girl Yu, if you have anything to say, why are you polite to Grandpa?" Grandpa Tang asked with a kind smile. Ye Ziyu glanced at Tang Luoyan and saw a touch of sadness at the bottom of his eyes, but he didn''t know whether it was acting or true? But whether true or false, it has nothing to do with her. "Grandpa, grandma, I''m sorry..." Ye Ziyu looked guilty. "I''m afraid Luo Yan and I can''t do what you want?" "Yu girl, what do you mean?" Grandpa Tang immediately sat upright. "Is this smelly boy bullying you? Tell Grandpa that Grandpa beat him for you!" "Grandpa, it''s not..." Ye Ziyu lowered his eyes and said in silence. "Grandpa, I get along with Luo Yan, but I can only treat him as my brother. I''m just family to him." Grandpa Tang and grandma Tang looked at each other. Obviously, they didn''t think it was the answer. They looked at Tang Luoyan one after another. At this time, Tang Luoyan stared at Ye Ziyu deeply. His expression was a little complicated. In the eyes of the old couple, he knew it was his grandson''s intention, but Yu girl had only family affection. "Besides, I have someone I like!" Ye Ziyu said, but her heart hurt badly, but she tried to bear it, "so I don''t want to delay Luoyan, and I don''t want to live up to the love of my grandparents." Grandpa Tang sighed and looked at grandma Tang. He understood that the feelings of the child''s family could not be forced. He could only nod and say, "although he and Luoyan are not lovers, it''s certain to come back for dinner often!" "Yes!" Ye Ziyu''s heart was in tears, but the smile on her face was a soothing smile. Tears in her eyes fell into the eyes of Grandpa and grandma Tang. It was tears of gratitude... But she knew it was too painful. What she didn''t know at the moment was that Tang Luoyan also knew that it was sad and sad tears. After leaving the compound, ye Ziyu gritted his teeth and said, "stop the car!" Tang Luoyan subconsciously stepped on the brake. Just when he wanted to say something, he saw Ye Ziyu unfastening his seat belt and trying to get off. He grabbed her wrist with quick eyes and hands, "Ziyu." "You don''t have to give it to me. I want to walk alone..." Ye Ziyu didn''t look back, but said calmly, "let me stay alone. It''s the last gift you give me!" Tang Luoyan didn''t want to, but he felt the sadness on Ye Ziyu and unconsciously released his hand. "Thank you!" Ye Ziyu opened the door and stopped. When Tang Luoyan suddenly had an urgent scratch at the bottom of her eyes, she said faintly, "please don''t follow me. I want absolute personal space." After his indifferent words, ye Ziyu got out of the car and closed the door without hesitation. Tang Luoyan looked at Ye Ziyu''s determined back and endured the impulse to get out of the car to catch up, but he was not willing to leave. At the right time, the mobile phone rang. Tang Luoyan took it out a little impatiently. Seeing that it was ye Peiyao, he subconsciously looked at Ye Ziyu''s back and picked it up, "Yao Yao?" "Ah Yan, have you finished there?" Asked ye Peiyao. "Yes." Tang Luoyan was always a little depressed. "I''m at Locke winery. Come and see me?" Ye Peiyao smiled in her voice, "celebrate." Tang Luoyan looked at Ye Ziyu again. When he thought of her attitude just now, he didn''t know whether he was angry with himself or something. He answered the voice, hung up the phone, started the car and crossed the thin figure Ye Ziyu stopped and looked at the car, smiled coldly, put his hand in his down jacket pocket, hung his head and walked forward step by step Suddenly. The sound of tires rubbing the ground came around. Ye Ziyu subconsciously stopped and looked at it. The car stopped not far or near. I don''t know whether it''s too late to brake or why. The butt of the car just crossed her by five or six steps And under the faint tail light, she saw the car number! Secretly swallowed it. Ye Ziyu didn''t care about the sad spring and autumn at the moment. He just looked at the bumper she hit yesterday "Eh?!" No bump marks? It is fixed?! Ye Ziyu wondered if he was dazzled and suddenly thought of a question. The owner won''t know that she hit his car yesterday?! Chapter 1758 Lin Nanan just sent Tang Lu back to her grandfather''s house. Unexpectedly, she met this woman and left here alone. Looking at her changeable face staring at her car butt from the reversing mirror, he couldn''t help laughing. He thought it was interesting. He didn''t get out of the car and just enjoyed it there. Ye Ziyu was wondering if the car owner would know that she had hit her. She was uneasy... After waiting for a while, she didn''t drive away when she saw the car, and no one came down. She swallowed it involuntarily and pretended to go forward as if nothing had happened! Well, as if I didn''t know at all However, when people do bad things, they will feel guilty, and ye Ziyu is no exception. She was actually a little cautious. I don''t know it''s her. I don''t know. If I saw it when I hit it yesterday, most car owners behave like crazy. Come and scold first, and then let me lose money? The other party didn''t do so, so she certainly didn''t see the accident. Yes, that''s it! When ye Ziyu didn''t stop, he found that he didn''t want to wash his mind with her After walking for about four or five minutes, ye Ziyu finally couldn''t bear the inner suffering and suddenly stopped. Seeing her stop, Lin Nannan also stopped the car. He put one hand on the steering wheel, one arm slightly supported on the door, with a playful smile in his mouth, looking at the girl tightly wrapped in a down jacket. When I met her at that time, she seemed to be arguing with another girl. Why are you here now? Where can I take a bus from here? Still so late? He frowned slightly. When Lin looked slightly deeper to the south, he saw that ye Ziyu seemed to have made some decision, suddenly turned around and knocked on the front passenger''s glass. Lin Nan, with a shallow smile in his mouth, lowered the window. Ye Ziyu only felt a rush of heat coming towards her, with a slight warmth. "What do you want?" Ye Ziyu asked angrily. At the same time, his head tilted slightly and looked south at Lin. There was some darkness in the car. When the lights shrouded around, the contrast between light and darkness made her unable to see the man clearly. I just feel that men should be young. "What do I want to do?" Lin Xiangnan felt funny. Ye Ziyu rolled his eyes. "What do you want to do with your car following me?" "It''s really strange," Lin raised his eyebrow to the south. "This road is the only way to the city. Where am I going if I don''t go here?" "..." Ye Ziyu was speechless for a moment. Lin Nan looked at her rich expression, the smile on the corners of her mouth deepened, and her posture became more and more lazy. Because of mingmie, ye Ziyu couldn''t see the south of Qinglin, but he could see her clearly. Ye Ziyu bit his lower lip and wondered whether to say anything about the crash. But the man didn''t seem to mention it. Wouldn''t she be stupid if she didn''t admit it to herself? After thinking about it, she secretly gritted her teeth and turned to go on. Lin Nannan started the car and followed her. She was fast. He slightly refueled the door. She was slow. He slipped the car like this. Ye Ziyu thought about the man driving hundreds of times, and was a little afraid. Won''t you meet a pervert? If this man suddenly gets her into the car, she really doesn''t work every day. With an uneasy and uneasy heart, ye Ziyu couldn''t help accelerating his steps I was so worried that I got to the bus stop. During this period, there are quite a lot of people waiting for the bus at the bus station. When ye Ziyu looked at so many people, he breathed out secretly. Subconsciously, I turned my head and saw that the Land Rover suddenly accelerated... And left. Ye Ziyu stood still and looked at the Land Rover that had not entered the traffic flow. For a moment, he forgot his reaction. The man didn''t leave until he came here. It was just Ye Ziyu secretly grinned and felt more and more guilty. She thought what was wrong with others, and some didn''t think about it... In fact, the man accompanied her to the bus stop and left at ease, didn''t he? The people who can get in and out of that compound are all dignified people. How could she think so dirty?! Ye Ziyu went to the bus station in some chagrin, waiting for the bus while feeling guilty. I hit someone''s car yesterday and left such a note. Today, people sent her to the bus station, but she thought it was so unbearable Ye Ziyu glanced at the corner of his mouth and subconsciously looked at the place where the forest disappeared to the South car. ¡­¡­ After Lin left South, he did not return to the army. His current status is not a special case. It is normal for him not to return to the team occasionally. The car was about to get home when suddenly the telephone rang. Lin looked south, hung up his Bluetooth headset and said, "what''s the matter?" "I heard you went on a blind date today!" Xu Zhao, a good friend and classmate, joked on the phone. Lin turned his eyes to the south. "Heard?" He sniffed coldly, "you''re so idle in this mechanism that you can only gossip... I think I have to suggest to uncle that you organs come down and practice, so as to save you the pain of being idle all day." "No, no, no, I''m not as self abusive as you!" Xu Zhao pushed his glasses and grinned, "didn''t you go back to the team?" "No." "Then come and have a drink?" Xu Zhao said with a smile, "just a few students are here." Lin Nan rubbed his eyebrows. "It''s not over. I have to go back to the team tomorrow. I had a winter training to do a few years ago, and then I''ll take a vacation." When Xu Zhao heard this, he didn''t force it. He just continued to tease and asked, "you''re only on a blind date today, train tomorrow, and then take a vacation..." he smiled. "Your blind date probably doesn''t like you." Lin Nanan only joked, "if I don''t have a sense of loneliness as a military sister-in-law, I can only stop hurting others." "I think your aunt is worried. You don''t care." Xu Zhao raised his eyebrows. "I said to Lin Zi, don''t you still miss Su Xiaoxiao?" Lin Nan''s thoughts stagnated slightly, and his eyes fell in front. On the deserted road reflected by the lights, he gradually lost his mind When he proposed, Xiaoxiao didn''t show up. Later, it was almost like "missing". Everyone knows it. But what everyone doesn''t know is that Xiaoxiao has such an identity, and what we don''t know is... Xiaoxiao has been dead for two years! And he didn''t know until yesterday! "Woods?" Seeing that Lin was silent to the south, Xu Zhao frowned and wondered. Lin Nan suddenly regained his mind, collected the heartache under his grief, pulled the corners of his mouth and said, "there are some things that it''s useless to think about... However, in the future, we should always find a suitable one." "That too!" Xu Zhao sighed, "you are special again. This girl really needs to look for it... Not only loneliness, but also worry." Lin glanced at the corner of his mouth and laughed at himself. Now the task is on hand, life and death are uncertain Lin Nan scratched a touch of astringency at the corner of his mouth. His mind was completely Su Xiaoxiao''s nameless and lonely tombstone. Little, I will engrave your name on your tombstone certain! Chapter 1759 If time is a long river of memory So, what are we passing by? What are you keeping?! Lin Nannan doesn''t know. He just knows that there are some things he can''t escape and avoid. But the deepest love, in the face of the interests of the country and the people, should we give up or stick to it? The Lin family is a military family. He has carried the mission of the family since he was born. However, there is a small family in everyone... And if he can''t protect his small family, how can he come from everyone?! Lin Nan pulled over to the side of the road, got out of the car, leaned against the car, took out his cigarette and lit it. Those who didn''t smoke before joined the army, but got infected. There was no starlight under the night. The tongue of smoke flickered occasionally, which seemed a little treacherous on the silent road. He has received the cruelest training. He is indeed the most suitable person for the task that chief Lang said yesterday. "South, although I use her to arouse your mind to take this task, you should also think clearly. When dealing with the task... You can''t lose your degree and discretion because of her." Last night, Lang Xiaolin went to the canteen for dinner and sat at a table with Lin Nannan. "You should be very clear that even if the task needs, some things should not be involved. Even if the task succeeds, you may hurt yourself." Lin Nan Nan was eating with a porcelain basin. After hearing this, he hissed and didn''t answer. After receiving the task, he has put himself aside Throw the cigarette away and put it out with your feet. Lin Nan got up, got into the car and went home. After a training year ago, he was going back to Los Angeles. Not only want to see Grandpa, but also want to see his brothers and sisters in law, as well as children. Of course He also needs to get something from the Dragon boss and the third brother. As for the second brother... He''s thinking. ¡­¡­ Winter goes to spring. The winter in Yicheng is a little long. Even though it has been more than a month since the end of the new year, it is still very cold sooner or later. "Leaf, are you going to work part-time today?" Zhou Mo ran packed up her things and asked. "Well," Ye Ziyu had already carried his bag, "I''ll go first." "Be careful on the road." "Good drop!" Ye Ziyu blew a kiss to the three girls in the dormitory and left the dormitory in a hurry. "Why is Ye suddenly so busy?" Wang Xiaoqin frowned. "Doesn''t she usually take part-time jobs as a little translator?" "I said I had another English tutor." Zhou Mo ran spoke faintly. Song LAN didn''t speak, but was silent. Ye always dodges when talking about tutoring. Mainly, who teaches so late? She came back almost every day when she hurried to the entrance guard of the dormitory. Twice, she just didn''t fall asleep. Did she smell a faint smell of wine when the leaves passed her bed? Is it an illusion or something? How can tutors smell like wine? "Lan Lan, what''s the matter?" Wang Xiaoqin looked at her, "what do you think?" "Huh?" Song Lanlan suddenly thought back, "Oh, no, nothing?!" Wang Xiaoqin frowned and looked at Zhou Moran, then said, "OK, let''s go to the canteen for dinner." "Yes." The three girls got up and went to the canteen for dinner. At the same time, ye Ziyu rode her small pedal through the streets of Yicheng, and finally stopped at the "Moonlight entertainment city". Moonlight entertainment city is a very famous entertainment city in Yicheng. Two years ago, I heard that a branch was opened in Los Angeles, called "night". The two are one boss and I heard that they have a strong background. However, although the name is easy to make people daydream, there are not so many black businesses in it. At least, ye Ziyu didn''t see it. "Leaf, there are two minutes left. You were almost late again." The foreman saw the leaf panting in and said some unhappily. "There are two minutes left!" Ye Ziyu smiled and hurriedly changed his clothes under the glare of the foreman. Open the cabinet, ye Ziyu put the bag in, took out the mobile phone in his pocket, was about to put it in, slightly stopped and opened the text message. Nowadays, people rarely use text messages. They basically receive push messages and notifications. The first is the fee reminder notice sent by Yicheng first people''s hospital. Years ago, Xiaohua''s mother''s treatment was very smooth, but... It was only more than two months before she went to the hospital again. It''s worse this time. She can''t get money from her father. Now she can only work in the entertainment city. The salary here is high. At least... Her salary is higher than that of one who has not graduated from college and can only receive some small translators. After secretly taking a breath, ye Ziyu put his mobile phone back in the locker and hurriedly changed his work clothes and went out. "There seem to be some big people today..." "The moonlight is one of the best in Yicheng entertainment city. Which day is it not a big man?" "No, I heard that Xi Hongwen..." someone lowered his voice and said his name before he said, "here you are, too." "That dude?!" "Yes!" The man shook his head with some fear. "Last time he made trouble in a drunken dream, he was all right in the end, but drunken dream went out of business for rectification. He hasn''t opened it yet!" Ye Ziyu has heard of Xi Hongwen from Tang Luoyan that he is lawless at home, but his ability is not bad. "But don''t worry today. It''s said that he invited several people. They''re all very good." "It''s best not to make trouble. Waiters like us are just those who pay and commission. Don''t make trouble. I''ll delay my making money later!" "Just..." Ye Ziyu prayed secretly that she was really short of money now. "What are you doing together? Don''t you have to work?" The foreman came over at the right time, looked at several people and said, "you, you... And you, send the wine on this list to this box." Ye Ziyu printed the name of a bottle of wine. It''s all good "Bad luck!" The people around him suddenly said angrily, "Why are the three of us going to Xi Hongwen''s box?" "We can only pray that it''s all right now. As long as it''s all right, our commission and tip will be considerable today!" Another comforted himself. Ye Ziyu sighed quietly. He didn''t speak, but silently prepared drinks. Then the three went to the box. In the box, there was no ambiguous atmosphere in the imagination. Although there were several women to accompany, there was obviously no big action. Ye Ziyu squatted and knelt beside the tea table silently, opened the wine skillfully, took the cup and poured it down She felt a hot look on her and couldn''t help laughing at the corners of her mouth. Lin Nan held an unlit cigarette in his hand, and looked at Ye Ziyu with a smile in his mouth. Is this fate? When I came back from vacation, I met again when I came out for the first time Ye Ziyu didn''t dare to look at the sharp line of sight, suppressed the confusion and fear in his heart, tried to stabilize his gesture and pushed the poured wine glass forward Suddenly! A scream of "ah" came, followed by the sound of broken glass. At the same time, a "hissing" backward suction, mixed with stinging pain, spilled over Ye Ziyu''s lips. Chapter 1760 Just now, when ye Ziyu pushed the wine over, a man in front was joking with a woman The woman''s body suddenly slipped down from the man, and her men realized that they wanted to support the tea table, but they accidentally supported it on the cup and broke the goblet Originally, ye Ziyu would not get hurt. It should be the woman who got hurt. But the man who joked before pulled the woman back into his arms in a critical moment. Ye Ziyu didn''t have time to shrink his hand, and the broken corner just pierced into the palm of her hand. Although she shrinks fast, it''s a pity that she still cuts Ye Ziyu''s painful hand trembled. Before he could manage it, he heard a furious voice, "how the fuck did you do it?" Then he heard a shiver on the tea table, and ye Ziyu fell to the ground. In the whole box, the atmosphere suddenly became depressed. Everyone looked at Ye Ziyu with fear, sympathy, banter... And a look that seemed to have no emotion, but seemed to have emotion. "I''m sorry, I''m sorry..." Ye Ziyu hurriedly apologized for the cut in her hand. "Sorry?" The man sneered, "you''re done with a fucking sorry? Ah?" "There are few seats, people are in great pain..." the voice of jiaochen was crisp and numb, which could make men soft to the bone. Ye Ziyu bit his lower lip and looked across the woman. You hurt? What do you hurt? It''s my hand, not yours! Ye Ziyu clenched his uninjured hand and lowered his eyes to apologize. Anyway, she doesn''t want to get into trouble... Get into trouble! The most important thing is that she doesn''t dare to make things big. If her father knows that she came to the entertainment city to work part-time and beat her to death, she won''t even have the chance to raise money for Xiaohua''s mother. "Sorry, I didn''t mean to... Sorry!" Ye Ziyu frowned and apologized all the time, letting the man scold there. "Tut Tut, women with few seats can also be frightened by you. It''s true..." someone joked, "ask for more blessings!" The two waiters who had brought in wine with Ye Ziyu looked at Ye Ziyu with worry, but they didn''t dare to speak. One is afraid of causing trouble. The other knows that once you help, it will only add fuel to the fire. The unlit smoke in Lin Nan''s hand turned slightly between his fingers. When the light went out, he looked at Ye Ziyu faintly, as if the matter at the moment had nothing to do with him. Xi Hongwen suddenly let go of the woman in his hand, turned the tea table and squatted down slowly in front of Ye Ziyu Ye Ziyu''s heart was mentioned to her throat. The pressure enveloped in her whole body inadvertently looked at her with a sharp stab, as if she was going to swallow her alive. Secretly swallowed, and ye Ziyu bit his lower lip. Because he was nervous, it seemed that he couldn''t feel the pain on his hand. "Oh", Xi Hongwen suddenly pinched Ye Ziyu''s chin with his thumb and index finger and picked up her originally hanging face "Yo, this girl looks good!" Someone whistled. Ye Ziyu is forced to look at Xi Hongwen. Just because the light goes out, she can''t see Xi Hongwen very clearly. At the moment, the man looked cold and cruel, but he looked like five or six. Xi Hongwen''s fingers inched and forced Ye Ziyu''s face to turn left and right. At the same time, his eyes gradually overflowed with ambiguous light, and slowly said, "you said, you surprised my woman... Just be sorry?" Ye Ziyu''s jaw was pinched and hurt. Looking at Xi Hongwen''s line of sight, there was a trace of stubborn forbearance. Xi Hongwen smiled, "you really look good. Why don''t you tonight..." "Yes!" Suddenly, a faint voice came, with a hint of playfulness under the banter, and interrupted Xi Hongwen''s next words with deep meaning. Everyone was stunned and looked at the speaker one after another. Lin Nannan timely released his overlapping legs, threw the cigarette that had never been lit in his hand onto the tea table, and got up slowly "This woman, I want it!" Lin Nannan''s voice is slow. It''s obviously just casual, but it makes people feel the invisible momentum. The people in the box were stunned for a few seconds, and then someone smiled and said, "it''s rare that you will have a woman you like in the South..." "Yes! You don''t know when to come out to play..." before the other person finished, he was swept by Lin Nannan''s light line of sight, immediately touched his nose and shut up. Xi Hongwen''s face was a little bad. He shook off Ye Ziyu and looked at Lin Nannan coldly. "Nannan, this... Is not appropriate?" Lin Nan didn''t speak. He just walked over and pulled Ye Ziyu up. Xi Hongwen also stood up. The two men looked at each other in an instant, and sparks splashed everywhere. Someone felt that the atmosphere was inappropriate. Luo Hai, who intersected with Xi Hongwen, hurried up and walked over After looking at Lin to the south, he touched Xiaxi Hongwen slightly and said in a voice that only two people can hear: "Hongwen, don''t forget your purpose today." Today, I invited Lin Nanan because Xi Hongwen has something to do with his next promotion. I need to come to him. But at the moment, if you offend Lin Nanan for an irrelevant woman, who knows if he will avenge himself? The Schilling family and their parents are among the best people in the upper ranks, but there are many disagreements on weekdays, and there are some disagreements. That''s all right. Who knows that Lin Nannan, who is two years younger than Xi Hongwen, can climb so fast and press Xi Hongwen two levels. Unfortunately, Xi Hongwen needs to go to Lin Nannan with a star this time. Xi Hongwen looked at Ye Ziyu, slightly endured his inner anger, and slowly looked at Lin Nan. His temples twitched, and then his mouth slowly said, "now that he''s attracted to the South..." he whispered coldly and couldn''t swallow his breath. "That''s better. Let''s take it out of the stage!" Ye Ziyu''s face suddenly changed and his eyes widened in horror. Lin Nan smiled at the corner of his mouth. It was very light and visible, but he didn''t feel the slightest smile. He knows what Xi Hongwen''s idea is. If he doesn''t take the woman away, it means he doesn''t give face and deliberately opposes him Although the two families fight openly and secretly, some face matters still need to be taken into account. However, if he didn''t deliberately confront Xi Hongwen, but really took a fancy to this woman, he would naturally take her away according to his idea. As for whether he will do anything after taking it away, Xi Hongwen is naturally not interested in knowing. Because Xi Hongwen just needs him to take people out With the handle in his hand, today''s goal will naturally be achieved. All the people present today are human spirits. In a moment, everyone already knows Xi Hongwen''s purpose. "I''m just a waiter, I''m not..." "Shut up!" Xi Hongwen opened his mouth with a smile. The bottom of his eyes showed the danger under the warning. After passing Ye Ziyu, he looked at Lin Nannan and said with a smile, "today''s appearance fee is covered by my brother..." he paused slightly. He raised his eyebrows and said, "how about Nannan?" Chapter 1761 "I''m not those women. I''m just a waiter. You have no right to ask me!" Ye Ziyu is a little afraid, whether you are Xi Hongwen or the man who likes her. Xi Hongwen glanced a sneer at Ye Ziyu and said, "Oh, so you don''t want to go south with me..." he paused. He lowered his eyes slightly, as if after meditating, he raised his eyes, and said in his voice with profanity, "it seems that you have a crush on me..." he suddenly leaned over and said, "want to play with me?" Ye Ziyu hurriedly stepped back in fear. "Tut Tut, looking at a poor look, it''s really pathetic..." Xi Hongwen suddenly frowned, "to the south, I don''t want to give someone to you again." Ye Ziyu''s face turned white with a brush. She stared at Xi Hongwen and Lin Nanan... If she chose one of the two, she would rather go with this, at least more opportunities. Lin Nan didn''t speak, but looked at Xi Hongwen quietly. All the people who came here today know something about Lin Nan. This man heard that when he was in Los Angeles, he was also bad. From small to large, there were a lot of things. But since joining the army, he has no less temper, but strong ability, so that the leaders above love and hate. How many of those people who don''t deal with the Lin family want to catch his pigtails, but this person will never be caught Is there really nothing about Moco''s jokes? Of course not! Just this person, Taiyin... Let you know that he is not a regular master, but he can''t grasp the substantive evidence. Luo Hai got close and looked at Lin Nan''s smiling face. He suddenly felt a little hairy... That feeling, as if this person can give pressure without saying anything. Xi Hongwen looked at Lin Nanfang again, raised his eyebrows and asked, "Nanfang, do you still take her?" Lin Nan sneered and opened his lips. His voice always said faintly, "OK..." "To the south is to take people away?" Xi Hongwen smiled, "Alas, brother, naturally I won''t win the favor of others... Take it away, just take it away!" Lin Nannan smiled and leaned over slightly. In Xi Hongwen''s ear, he said in the voice heard by two people: "brother, I''m Lin Nannan for this feeling today!" As soon as Xi Hongwen listened, a flash of light flashed in his eyes, and the smile on the corners of his mouth was bigger. Lin Nan smiled at the corners of his mouth, but his eyes were cold. He got up, put down the sentence "everyone play slowly, I''ll go first", took Ye Ziyu''s hand and left. The two waiters who came in to deliver the wine together before had concerns in their eyes, but they didn''t dare to say anything more. They had to bite their teeth secretly as if nothing had happened. "Xi Shao, let him take people away like this?" Someone asked. "When did Lin go out to the South and hear that he also played with women?" "Yes, it''s just made clear that it''s against Xi Shao!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± In his ear was the voice of people in Xi Hongwen circle, but he just smiled faintly, motioned with Luo Hai, and the two followed out. "Xi Shao..." someone shouted hurriedly when he saw that someone was going to leave. "You play first and I''ll be back later!" When Xi Hongwen put down his words, he and Luo Hai had left the box. ¡­¡­ "Thank you..." Ye Ziyu looked at the handkerchief that helped her wound and smiled at the corner of her mouth. Lin Nan sneered, "why, do you think I''m helping you?" "..." Ye Ziyu suddenly bit his lips and looked south at Lin. At that time, the box was dark, coupled with fear, she didn''t pay attention to the man At the moment, although he was evil, he didn''t look like a bad man. Thinking, Lin Nan suddenly attached himself to the front With the sound of "ah", ye Ziyu suddenly took a step back in fear. His eyes were filled with fear and resistance. He looked at the corner of his mouth across the sneering Lin Nan. "Go and change!" Lin Nanan seemed very satisfied with her "performance", got up and said, "you''d better be obedient, otherwise I don''t mind doing something to you here..." Ye Ziyu bit her lip. "I''m not that kind of woman!" "Oh..." Lin Nan chuckled, "and then?" "You need a woman. You can find one like that. I''m just a waiter. You have no right to take me... Take me..." Ye Ziyu''s face turned red. "Take me... Out, come out..." Lin Nan put his hands in his trouser pockets and said coldly, "it seems that you want to be with Xi Shao?" "I heard that he has ideas about women and likes to be stimulated later... For example, he does it while driving, or he likes to do it directly in the woods and in the wild..." Looking at Ye Ziyu''s increasingly white face, he raised his eyebrows and said slowly: "I heard that once, on the road, I directly pressed one on the hood and did it..." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Ye Ziyu was so frightened that her whole face lost its color. Her eyes floated from side to side. She wanted to find a chance to escape, but before she moved, Lin Nan suddenly grabbed her wrist. "Give you two choices, come with me... Be my woman!" Lin Nan''s voice was indifferent, "or I''ll give you back to Xi Hongwen." Ye Ziyu''s wrist was pinched and hurt. Tears twinkled in her eyes. "You can''t do this!" She was hopeful, "the foreman won''t agree..." Lin Nan listened and smiled. It seemed that this was the biggest joke he had ever heard. "Do you think the leader will offend Xi Hongwen because of you?" A rhetorical question suddenly sank Ye Ziyu''s heart. "I can sue you!" Ye Ziyu gritted his teeth. "Oh," Lin Nan gently won, and suddenly raised her hand holding Ye Ziyu''s wrist. She stumbled at her feet, and the person had been pressed against the wall by him. "As for people, it''s too naive......" he said with a sneer, "you know Xi Hongwen''s identity very well. What do you think you can do?" Ye Ziyu''s breathing became chaotic because of fear. Lin snorted coldly to the South and shook off Ye Ziyu. "I''ll give you five minutes to change your clothes." He raised his arm and looked at the time. "I''m impatient. If you want to challenge me, I don''t mind asking you to remember today." Ye Ziyu bit his lip and entered the dressing room under Lin Nannan''s gaze. When she went in, she suddenly found a problem From the box to the dressing room, there was no one who saw the moonlight. After ye Ziyu changed his clothes, he looked at the door of the dressing room and held his mobile phone to call the police "I''m you. I won''t be stupid enough to call the police..." The faint voice suddenly came from the outside. Ye Ziyu was so frightened that he almost threw away his mobile phone. She subconsciously looked around. There was no one in the empty dressing room except her. Does this man outside have perspective eyes? "You still have thirty seconds..." Lin Nanan''s voice came coldly. "If you want to do it here, I''ll go in later... Well, there are twenty seconds left!" Chapter 1762 Ye Ziyu pinched his cell phone, bit his lip and looked at the direction of the door... Wondering if he should lift his father''s name at last?! "Ten seconds left!" The voice came again, with a touch of ponder, pressing Ye Ziyu''s heart to suffocate. "Five more seconds..." Lin Nan leaned lazily against the wall, smiled at the bottom of his eyes, and counted the time silently Just one second later, the door of the dressing room was suddenly opened. Lin tilted his head to the South and had already restrained the smile at the bottom of his eyes. He looked at Ye Ziyu indifferently and got up. "I... ah!" Ye Ziyu originally wanted to discuss with Lin Nannan with a little thought, but a word spilled out. His wrist had been captured and the man was taken away "Hello, can you let me go?" Ye Ziyu could only trot along because Lin Nan''s long legs took a big step. "Please... I just want to earn some money and treat my mother... Please let me go!" 30592 8957 16925 15562 25113 6728 15981 27983 3427 25113 28938 5380 31117 18211 29323 14004 7343 1725 11019 29618 But, no! When Lin Nan pulled her out of the hall, there was no one! The waiters and floor managers who shuttle around every corner on weekdays seem to have disappeared. "Help..." when ye Ziyu saw someone in the hall, his eyes suddenly lit up hope and shouted. Someone looked at it, but it was only a glance, as if nothing had happened, and they were busy with their own. Ye Ziyu''s eyes widened. No matter how stupid she was, she knew what was going on now. Whether it''s this man or Xi Hongwen, I''m afraid he has explained There was a cold wind outside, and ye Ziyu was pulled out of the moonlight indifferently by Lin Nan. When ye Ziyu saw the outside, his eyes lit up hope But the talent just wanted to shout, suddenly, looking at a Land Rover in front, her slightly open mouth suddenly froze. What... This car again?! Ye Ziyu was so impressed with the car because of the car crash years ago and the night of acting with Tang Luoyan that... He can still remember it so clearly after a few months. Ye Ziyu''s breath was a little short. She suddenly turned her head to the south of Lin. The man silently "accompanied" her to the bus stop last time. It should not be a bad person "Are you the owner of this car?" When ye Ziyu just got to the car, he suddenly pulled Lin to the south, "I know you!" Lin Nan smiled at the corner of his mouth, released Ye Ziyu and looked at him Ye Ziyu said hurriedly, "really," she explained anxiously, "do you remember the heavy snow years ago... Once, it was in the compound of the military region of Honggu District... I walked alone on the road, and you followed me all the time and took me to the bus station to leave..." Lin Nan didn''t speak, but just looked at Ye Ziyu. "Really, you must remember." Ye Ziyu is worried. "I must remember?" Lin laughed to the south, "what if I remember? Can I change your destiny today?" "I walk alone on the road. You can worry about a girl walking at night. How can you..." Ye Ziyu didn''t go on. Because, at the bottom of Lin Nan''s eyes, she saw the heat of a man looking at a woman. Secretly swallowed, ye Ziyu subconsciously retreated But only two steps, the body has reached the car. As Lin approached south, she instinctively wanted to run. "Ah" came, and ye Ziyu''s shoulders were pressed south by Lin and returned to the car. "You, you are so... So good to strangers..." Ye Ziyu panicked. "Please, will you let me go today? I... I promise I won''t come to the moon in the future and won''t hinder your eyes... Please... Oh!" Ye Ziyu''s eyes widened in an instant. She even emptied her head. She could only look at this close and suddenly enlarged face Breathing, as if to stop. Even ye Ziyu can''t feel the air The original chattering mouth was blocked by warm lips. Between the breath and the nose, it was completely the faint smell of tobacco on the man Shit! This is her first kiss! Ye Ziyu flashed this message in his mind and instinctively wanted to push Lin Nan away. Unfortunately, she can''t push the man away, and even... The man''s tongue has invaded the private space in her mouth! The man''s kiss was gentle and overbearing. It seemed that it could suck away the soul in an instant, which made Ye Ziyu''s head "buzzing" and completely empty! I don''t know how long later, Lin Nan left Ye Ziyu''s lips, then opened the door of the back seat and stuffed Ye Ziyu, who was so short of oxygen that his brain didn''t work. He turned the back of the car, opened the door of the back seat on the other side and got into the car Just, at the moment of getting on the bus, the remaining light crossed somewhere. After Land Rover left, Xi Hongwen and Luo Hai came out of the dark. "Lin Nan seems to really like this woman?" Luo Hai said with some doubts. "Whether it''s true or not, I finally got something substantial." Xi Hongwen sneered and looked at his mobile phone. There were photos and videos on it. There are not only those outside the dressing room, but also those who have just kissed Ye Ziyu. "I turned everyone away and gave him such a good chance..." Xi Hongwen flashed a treacherous smile at the bottom of his eyes. "He didn''t let me down." ¡­¡­ Ye Ziyu waited until the car left for two or three minutes before he suddenly reacted. Subconsciously, she looked at the driver first, and then her pupils suddenly widened and looked at Lin Nan "Why didn''t you drive?" Ye Ziyu exclaimed. Lin Nan glanced at her coldly, with an obvious dislike in his eyes, "take your hand!" "Ah?" Ye Ziyu was stunned. He didn''t respond to Lin Nanan''s intention at all. He just looked at the driver and his face turned red. They were outside the car just now The whole journey is in the driver''s eyes? "Please don''t worry, miss," Li Hao looked at Ye Ziyu with a red face from the rearview mirror. "I didn''t see anything." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Isn''t this'' there''s no silver 300 Liang here ''?! Ye Ziyu pulled at the corner of his mouth and listened to the cool voice on one side. "Oh, we''re so noisy outside that you don''t see anything?" Lin Nan glanced at Li Hao lightly and said in a negative way, "it seems that there is something wrong with your eyes. It''s not suitable to follow me. It''s better to apply for transfer!" "..." Li Hao grinned, "Captain, I shouldn''t have seen it. Naturally, I didn''t see it." He said in some distress, "I want to say that I saw everything, and you have to say that I was blind and closed me tightly... Really, it''s hard for me to be your guard!" Later, Li Hao muttered, but it was obvious that he did not suppress his voice. Lin Nan ignored him, but ye Ziyu''s face was even hotter. "Hands!" Lin Nan spoke again. Ye Ziyu bit her lips and looked at Lin Nannan. The breath between her lips suddenly crossed the taste buds. Her face "brushed" and became more red. Lin Nan frowned slightly and looked at Ye Ziyu''s eyes more and more disgusted. He leaned forward slightly, pulled her injured hand, untied the dyed red handkerchief, and took the medicine box to deal with it for her Looking at Lin Nan''s skilled and gentle movements, ye Ziyu''s nose suddenly sour. There''s nothing wrong with her feeling. He''s helping her... Sure. But "Why did you just kiss me?" Ye Ziyu gritted his teeth and asked, staring angrily at Lin Nan. Chapter 1763 Lin Nan didn''t look up, but youyou said, "kiss is kiss, what and why?" "..." Ye Ziyu opened his mouth slightly. How did he feel... Taken for granted? The sound of "poof" came, and Li Hao couldn''t help laughing. Ye Ziyu''s face, which had faded slightly, turned red again. She looked at the driver. She was embarrassed and subconsciously wanted to withdraw her hand. "Hissing..." "Deserved it!" Lin Nanan is wrapping gauze for ye Ziyu. She suddenly retracts her hand. When his strength fails, the gauze suddenly tightens and strangles her. "I didn''t see your pain at that time. I can''t stand it now." Lin Nan heard a cold voice. Ye Ziyu''s aggrieved mouth, and the fundus of his eyes was filled with a thin layer of water mist, "you just wanted to save me, didn''t you?" Lin Nan ignored her, but continued to wrap her hands. "But..." Ye Ziyu thought of the situation at that time and suddenly tightened his mouth. "Are you because I promised Xi Hongwen something?" "Yes." Lin answered faintly to the south. "Then..." "I can take you back to him," Lin looked up at Ye Ziyu. "I won''t count what I just promised." "..." Ye Ziyu took a puff from the corner of his mouth, and the emotion that had been brewing disappeared in an instant. "Then you''d better promise him!" Li Hao looked at Ye Ziyu again from the rearview mirror. The corners of his mouth were tightly clenched, and he laughed again for fear that he couldn''t stand it. After Lin Nan glanced at Ye Ziyu coldly, he let go of her hand and left the medicine box aside, "where are you going?" "Huh?" Ye Ziyu couldn''t keep up with Lin''s thought of going south. "There''s no place to go, so go to my house." Lin said to the South and looked at her. Ye Ziyu suddenly opened his eyes. "I''ll go back to school and go to the Danan campus." Lin Nan didn''t speak again, just coldly took back his sight. Li Hao drove his car to chendanan campus. For a moment, he was silent. Ye Ziyu secretly looked at Lin Nanan several times and remembered that he hit his car and left such a note... But others helped her twice. Drooping his eyes, ye Ziyu''s subordinates twisted their consciousness, struggling to admit their mistakes. But every time I want to say it, I see Lin Nan''s indifferent side face. In the end... Swallow the words back. All the way to Da Nan campus without words. When the bus stopped, ye Ziyu glanced at the school gate and said silently, "thank you." Then she turned and opened the door. "Remember what you just said yourself." Lin Nan''s voice came from behind. Ye Ziyu twisted his eyebrows and looked back at him, "what?" Lin frowned to the South and looked at Ye Ziyu''s eyes more and more disgusted Ye Ziyu suddenly flashed something in his mind and said, "I dare not go back there," he paused, "but I want to go back to get my salary tomorrow." Although it takes less than a month, she can also pay some days'' hospitalization expenses and medicine money to Xiaohua''s mother. "Don''t go over there. I''ll ask the other side to call you directly after the salary is settled." Lin Nan said, looking slightly out of the car. The obvious departure order stuck Ye Ziyu''s words in her throat. She lowered her eyes, turned and got out of the car silently. Ye Ziyu, who walked to the school gate, subconsciously looked back when entering the school gate There is no Land Rover on the road. Ye Ziyu sighed slightly and whispered "thank you" before entering the campus. ¡­¡­ "Captain," Li Hao asked with a worried look, "for this woman, give battalion commander Xi a handle..." he looked at the young man in the back seat from the rearview mirror. "Let him add stars this time, and he is likely to be transferred to our army head. Won''t you have more friction with him then?" "Even if Hongxing is against it this time, it''s inevitable." Lin Nan took out a cigarette and lit it. "In that case, it''s better to take personal feelings with you." "What by the way?" Li Hao turned his eyes. "I saw it clearly in the car just now. Battalion commander Xi and deputy battalion Luo were in the dark..." paused. "In fact, the captain found it, so he would... Well, the young lady just now." "Huh?" Lin Nan was amused by the innocent guard. The guard blushed and continued, "I''m sure battalion commander Xi must have photographed your evidence." "Yes." Lin Nan answered and took a smoke, which agreed with Li Hao. Li Hao rolled his eyes, "then you still..." "Xi Hongwen invited me over today to show his kindness." Lin opened the window to the south, put his arm slightly on the window and looked out. "This is good. He wanted to show me that I will accept it today... I can''t be too stiff to work together in the future." Li Hao looked at Lin Nannan from the rearview mirror. He knew the captain''s consideration. However, I don''t know why, he always feels that today''s things are not so simple The car suddenly became quiet. Only the sound from outside disturbed my thoughts. Lin Nannan put out the cigarette butts in the ashtray in the car, took his mobile phone, called out a number and dialed it out. As soon as the phone was connected, Lin said to the south, "brother." "Why do you think of calling me now?" Lin Qin asked with a smile. Lin Qin is the son of Uncle Lin Nanan. He is also the largest in his family. He began to work in the Ministry of foreign affairs and later resigned to the sea... However, it is also foreign and domestic business. "I have a friend here who needs some part-time work. Do you have anything that can be arranged with short cycle and high salary?" Lin asked South. "I''m calling now, just for this..." Lin Qin''s voice was curious, "men and women?" "Female!" Lin rubbed his eyebrows to the south. Lin Qin laughed and joked about Lin Nan before asking, "what language do you know?" "My major is German, and I have no problem with English. It seems that I can speak French..." "I happen to have some German translation work here," Lin Qin said with a smile. "Let her come back later!" "No, you let the company contact her and say it''s the resume you saw online." Lin Nan said. Lin Qin was stunned, "Yo, this is a good thing. Don''t you leave your name?" He suddenly wondered, "south, what does this girl like?" "Don''t let me help a bunch of girls, do you think I''m interested in them? In this case, I can''t have a group of harem..." Lin turned his eyes to the south, "no, a friend''s sister." "You know ye Xuan''s little sister, too." "Ye Xuan?!" Lin Qin was puzzled and his face changed slightly. Lin sighed to the south, "big brother..." "Well, I see." Lin Qin interrupted what Lin Nan was going to say. After a slight silence, he said solemnly, "south, it''s better to stay away from the Lin family in the future." Chapter 1764 "I know." Lin answered to the south. Lin Qin sighed again, "to the south, you earned your position today by yourself. Anyway... Take good care of yourself." "Yes." Lin Nan answered again. After chatting with Lin Qin again, he hung up the phone. Leaning against the car seat, Lin looked south to the neon outside the city and gradually deepened his eyes. After seven or eight years in the army, he was no longer the wanton Nanshao in Los Angeles. Now he... Has his responsibility. "Captain, go back to the team?" Li Hao asked. Lin looked south at the time. "Go back to your apartment and go back tomorrow morning." "OK." Li Hao answered and turned to Lin Nannan''s apartment in Yicheng. In the silence along the way, Li Hao wanted to ask something several times, but every time his words came to his mouth, he didn''t know what he wanted to ask. "Captain..." Li Hao was overwhelmed by the atmosphere in the car. "Don''t ask anything!" Lin spoke faintly to the south. Li Hao looked at the man in the back seat from the rear-view mirror, scratched his head and made a bitter "Oh" sound. ¡­¡­ "Eh, ye, why did you come back so early today?" Song Lanlan was painting nail polish and was surprised to see Ye Ziyu come in. "Leaf, what happened to your hand?" Zhou Mo ran, who just came out of the washroom, glanced at Ye Ziyu''s hand and walked forward with a simple and elegant face. Everyone''s attention suddenly fell to Ye Ziyu. Wang Xiaoqin quickly jumped out of bed and went to her side. "Oh, it''s all right..." Ye Ziyu said, "the tutor child was naughty and broke the cup. I accidentally stabbed it..." she felt guilty at the bottom of her eyes. "That, so... I came back first." No one doubted him and cared about him one after another. Ye Ziyu was particularly moved. He shook his head with a smile in his mouth and said, "it has been handled. It''s all right." As she spoke, she inexplicably thought of the scene that the man had just treated her wound, disinfected and bandaged her Then, thinking of the previous deep kiss, suddenly, her face turned red. "Why is your face so red?" Song LAN twisted her eyebrows. "Is it a fever?" As she spoke, she had already put her hand to it. Ye Ziyu was shocked, subconsciously retreated, and hurriedly said, "it''s estimated that it''s a little cold outside. As soon as you come in, the cold and heat alternate... I''m fine." As she spoke, she shook her head hurriedly. Looking at Ye Ziyu, song Zilan seems to wonder why she doesn''t know But what is guilty of? Ye Ziyu put down her bag and planned to wash and go to bed. If the moon doesn''t go, she has to find a way to find a part-time job tomorrow "Leaves, be careful not to touch water." Zhou Mo Ran''s voice came from outside. "Well, I know." Ye Ziyu answered with a loud voice, and then looked at himself in the mirror. Subconsciously, she raised her hand and touched her lips, and the tip of her tongue licked it uncontrollably. Ye Ziyu froze slightly. When he felt how ambiguous his behavior was, his face "Teng" turned red again. Ye Ziyu, are you crazy about flowers? At that time, I was scared to death and angry that it was my first kiss... Now you have endless aftertaste! Ye Ziyu took a few deep breaths. After washing, he went out of the washing room. When I got out of the bathroom, three people in the dormitory were talking about something around a notebook "What are you looking at?" Ye Ziyu came forward curiously and saw the school''s forum page. "It''s said that people from Munich University will come to our school for exchange and study," Zhou Muran said. "This time, there are also important political children over there." Ye Ziyu said "Oh" and didn''t feel much. Song Lanlan turned her eyes. "Leaves, it''s crazy to discuss on the forum. Even Mo ran, who doesn''t care about anything on weekdays, has seen it. You just... Oh?!" Ye Ziyu frowned slightly, "otherwise?" "I think you only have to work now!" Song Lanlan couldn''t stand it. "They came here this time. I heard that they were received by people from your foreign language department, especially those who majored in German..." "Is that also the senior sisters and seniors?" Ye Ziyu shrugged. "I don''t know. It''s said that the school hasn''t appointed someone yet..." Song Lanlan glanced down and said with a bright eye. "However, according to the grapevine, this time because there are the children of political dignitaries, there will be professionals to protect him." Ye Ziyu looked at Song Lanlan with an excited look on her face. She couldn''t understand... Isn''t that normal? "Hey, hey, do you know where it is?" Song LAN raised her eyebrows as if I had the best news. Ye Ziyu shook his head in cooperation. Song Lanlan smiled. "It''s said that it was from the legendary special combat brigade in group B army." As soon as she said this, she was not excited. "That special combat brigade that is about to be spread to heaven... According to the law that good men are handed over to the state, I will see a lot of masculine men that day... Tut Tut, I''m excited to think about it." "Be careful, the one in your family dug your eyes... Still excited!" Ye Ziyu rolled her eyes. "He dares!" Song LAN immediately raised her eyebrows. Ye Ziyu, Zhou Moran and Wang Xiaoqin looked at each other and laughed one after another. Several girls went to bed, chatting and talking Ye Ziyu is not thinking. Either the sinister and ambiguous eyes of Xi Hongwen or the kiss of the man called South "Ah!" Ye Ziyu suddenly screamed and sat up. "What''s the matter?" The other three were called by Ye Ziyu and looked at her one after another. "I was just sent back. I didn''t ride back." Ye Ziyu grinned secretly, "there''s no class tomorrow afternoon. Forget it, I''ll pick it up this afternoon!" "I don''t have classes in the afternoon. Shall I go with you?" Song Lan said on the bed. "No!" Ye Ziyu quickly refused. "Huh?" Song LAN twisted her eyebrows. "Ha ha," Ye Ziyu also found himself a little overreacting and grinned secretly, "well... I''ll just go there myself." Song Lanlan looked at Ye Ziyu suspiciously, "Oh", and looked at the bottom of her eyes. Ye Ziyu gave a light sigh at the corner of his mouth without saying anything more Sure enough, a lie needs more lies to fulfill it. The next day, the weather became overcast for several days. Ye Ziyu didn''t eat lunch. He took a bus and went to the moonlight Just go to the cart, not to get the money. The car is outside. It''s not the moon... So she didn''t promise and didn''t do it. Thinking like this, ye Ziyu suddenly felt a little flustered. It''s all... Guilty of being a thief. "Arrive ahead..." When the arrival announcement came, ye Ziyu hurried to the rear door, got out of the car and hurried to the moonlight. When ye Ziyu arrived at the moonlight, he sighed secretly when he saw that his little pedal was still there "Yo, let me see who this is?" Suddenly, a voice came from the side, "isn''t this girl the one who brought it to the South last night?" Ye Ziyu looked sideways. When he saw Xi Hongwen, his small face turned white Chapter 1765 Xi Hongwen came slowly with a smile in his mouth. Although there is a dangerous smell of evil in his body, he is a man in the army, but his body is straight. In addition, if you don''t know his character, you are actually a very likable man Ye Ziyu doesn''t know why he met Xi Hongwen here at the moment. He can''t play until now from last night?! The fundus of his eyes brushed a touch of disdain uncontrollably. Ye Ziyu pricked his lower lip and didn''t answer. He just inserted the key into the car and wanted to leave. Unfortunately, the handlebar has been pulled by Xi Hongwen before it''s too late. "Let go..." Ye Ziyu said with forbearance. Xi Hongwen glanced lightly at the gauze wrapped in Ye Ziyu''s hand, and smiled at her. "How was your last night?" Ye Ziyu''s face changed in an instant. "Those who haven''t eaten meat for thousands of years in the South..." Xi Hongwen increased his smile, leaned over slightly and said slowly, "can you bear it? Hmm?" Ye Ziyu''s face turned red. He felt disgusted at such two and three generations of people who acted recklessly at home. She tried to back down the car and tried to break away from Xi Hongwen. Unfortunately, in any case, although Xi Hongwen has a problem with his character, some things he can practice are not vague at all... Ye Ziyu can''t get rid of this strong hand at all. "What do you want?" Ye Ziyu gritted his teeth and looked at Xi Hongwen angrily. Last night, because the light was very dark, coupled with anger and some other reasons, Xi Hongwen didn''t take a good look at Ye Ziyu At the moment, looking at her not amazing but delicate and beautiful little face, because she could not bear to be flushed, it was a bit of natural makeup beauty, and she couldn''t help adding a silk ambiguity to the smile of the corners of her mouth. "No wonder Nanfang wants you," Xi Hongwen suddenly pinched Ye Ziyu''s chin with his other hand. "It''s really pretty." Ye Ziyu wanted to break free, but unfortunately, he still didn''t break free. "What''s your name?" Xi Hongwen suddenly became interested. Ye Ziyu held the handlebar tightly in his hands and kept silent. Because he was nervous, his injured hand used force and didn''t feel pain. "You don''t say..." Xi Hongwen said, letting go of Ye Ziyu''s chin. "I''ll know, too." "Isn''t that meaningless?" Ye Ziyu gritted his teeth and said. "Yes!" Xi Hongwen nodded approvingly, "I''ll ask the guard to take the car back to you and accompany me to dinner?" Ye Ziyu really wants to scold. Is this man sick? "Sorry, I don''t eat with strangers!" "Oh, my name is Xi Hongwen, and now I''m a friend..." Xi Hongwen had a mean smile around his mouth, showing blasphemy. Ye Ziyu secretly clenched his teeth and thought about how to get rid of this psychosis... But he found that unless something suddenly appeared to the south! ¡°¡­¡­¡± Ye Ziyu grinned secretly. Why did she think of the man in her first reaction? Xi Hongwen looked at Ye Ziyu''s unpredictable face and suddenly felt funny However, he happened to have dinner nearby at noon, so he stopped by to pick up the car... Unexpectedly, he met this woman. He did know her name. Last night, when Lin Nannan took her away, the manager came to him with a embarrassed face... Said that ye Ziyu was just a waiter and was taken out like this in case of trouble Make trouble? ha-ha! No matter he or Lin Nanan, no matter what the purpose is... No one will make this matter worse. Besides, the introduction of Lin Nandai is just to take people away. It''s not really what he wants to do... What can he do? However, some things are known to everyone, but that doesn''t matter. The important thing is to start for what, as well as the process! Just as ye Ziyu and Xi Hongwen were thinking, an Audi passed by the roadside. Tang Luoyan glanced slightly. He was slightly stunned at first, and then pulled over and stopped the car Looking straight at it, Tang Luoyan could not help frowning slightly when he saw that it was Ye Ziyu. When he saw Xi Hongwen, he suddenly changed his face and hurried out of the car, "Ziyu?" Ye Ziyu was surprised when she heard someone calling her, but when she saw Tang Luoyan coming towards her, her face turned white! She bit her lip slightly. Ye Ziyu suddenly thought that she would rather no one save her than Tang Luoyan see her appear here in the moonlight "Fewer seats!" Tang Luoyan looked at Ye Ziyu and smiled at Xi Hongwen. "I didn''t expect to meet you here." Xi Hongwen''s smile slightly converged into the politeness of alienation, released his hand controlling the small pedal and said faintly, "this time..." he deliberately paused before continuing, "shouldn''t you be in the Ministry?" Tang Luoyan smiled. "People from the University of Munich came to exchange and study at Hefei University. Now I''m going to the south campus to arrange relevant matters," he glanced at Ye Ziyu. "You''re an alternative to the list drawn up this time. You''ll have a meeting later. Why are you still outside?" "I......" Ye Ziyu clutched the small pedal again. "I''m going back now, but......" she looked at Xi Hongwen. "Xi Shao, if Ziyu offends you, I apologize for her." Tang Luoyan said humbly. "Do you know each other well?" Xi Hongwen raised his eyebrows and had fun in the fundus of his eyes. Tang Luoyan always had a girlfriend before. Everyone in the circle knows it. But who... I didn''t know before. It was years later that everyone knew that it was ye Peiyao, the eldest daughter of the Ye family. "Ziyu is Peiyao''s sister." Tang Luoyan saw Xi Hongwen''s meaning and replied. "Oh... It''s my sister-in-law!" Xi Hongwen''s voice was uncomfortable, and his sight flashed across Ye Ziyu like a smile. The daughter of the Ye family came to the moonlight as a waiter... Ha ha, it''s interesting. Did Lin Nan know that ye Ziyu belongs to the Ye family?! Xi Hongwen thought, looking at Ye Ziyu''s line of sight, pondering more. Ye Ziyu only felt his heart twitch suddenly, and his nose was even more sour. After breaking Tang Luoyan and ye Peiyao and compromising to play for Xiaohua''s mother''s medical expenses, she didn''t go home. If she wasn''t afraid of what her father and mother would see during the new year, she wouldn''t even go back for the new year. Seeing that the person she loves is about to become her brother-in-law... She just feels like crying. "Ye Ziyu, don''t you go back to school soon?" Tang Luoyan suddenly sank his face slightly, "if you are late, even if Peiyao pleads for you, you can''t expect me to open the back door for you..." "No!" Ye Ziyu clearly knew that Tang Luoyan said this on purpose to let her get away, but unfortunately, she felt terrible in her heart. After coldly putting down her words, she left on a small pedal. "The sister-in-law has a big temper." Xi Hongwen frowned slightly and looked at the hand that had just grabbed the handlebar. "It turns out... He is the one adopted by Uncle Ye." He raised his eyes and said with deep meaning, "when her father..." "Xi Shao," Tang Luoyan interrupted Xi Hongwen, "if I were you, I wouldn''t mention that year!" Chapter 1766 Ye Ziyu didn''t know how he got back to school. He was confused all the way. His mind was full of Xi Hongwen''s pondering sentence "it''s my sister-in-law" ha-ha! sister-in-law! When ye Ziyu thought of this, his eyes suddenly stung and turned red. She hurriedly looked up at the gloomy sky and forced her tears back. Ye Ziyu, this man has nothing to do with you. Put away your ridiculous love "Ye Ziyu!" A cold voice came from behind. Ye Ziyu took a deep breath, took back his sight, slowly turned and looked at Tang Luoyan after parking the car. Looking at the message coldly, ye Ziyu didn''t speak. He turned and wanted to go to the dormitory. There was a sound of striding behind, and then ye Ziyu''s wrist was caught. "You let go!" Ye Ziyu clenched his teeth and angrily denounced him. At the same time, he vigorously shook his hand. Tang Luoyan was slightly angry and looked around. He didn''t want to cause anything on the campus, so he let go of Ye Ziyu and asked in a deep voice, "Why are you in a place like the moonlight?" "What kind of place is the moonlight?" Ye Ziyu immediately sneered, "also, where do I have anything to do with you? What identity do you use to ask me? Brother-in-law?" One question after another made Tang Luoyan frown. Looking at the people he hadn''t seen since that night, he suddenly had an inexplicable emotion in his heart. A little manic and a little confusing. "Ye Ziyu, why are you so willing to degenerate?" Tang Luoyan gritted his teeth, "Xi Hongwen said. When he went back to drive, he just saw you go to the cart..." "Can I go and play? Can I accompany a man last night?" Ye Ziyu didn''t know what his nerves were, so he felt that he was unhappy. Why should he make the people in front of him happy? Oh, no! He will not be unhappy. Anyway, the person he loves is ye Peiyao. She is just the responsibility of Grandpa Tang. He hates her, and even hates her because of his responsibility! Thinking of this, ye Ziyu''s heart was sour for a while. "Ye Ziyu!" Angered by Ye Ziyu''s attitude, Tang Luoyan raised his hand and wanted to fan it. Ye Ziyu didn''t move, but stared at him with hatred, as if waiting for his slap to fall, so he could completely understand his mind about this person. After all, the slap didn''t fall. Tang Luoyan curled up and looked at the dense mist at the bottom of Ye Ziyu''s eyes. His heart was even more restless. Even if I didn''t see anyone at first, but inexplicably, when I saw Ye Ziyu, I had an unspeakable feeling in my heart, as if I didn''t give up, and as if... I was a little regretful! ha-ha! Regret? When did he regret Tang Luoyan''s work? He loves ye Peiyao, not ye Ziyu. "You didn''t go to such a place. Xi Hongwen is not a man you can provoke." After all, Tang Luoyan''s voice softened slightly, "Ziyu, you do it yourself." "I will take care of myself, and please clean up our relationship... Brother-in-law!" Ye Ziyu slightly clenched his hand, glanced at Tang Luoyan and turned away. The straight back is somewhat astringent in the overcast weather in early spring. Ye Ziyu knew how heavy he was at every step of his departure. She knew that Tang Luoyan had been looking at her. She didn''t dare to panic. She turned around and she needed to turn with dignity. Even such dignity... It''s ridiculous. When ye Ziyu entered the corridor, he breathed deeply, but his eyes were already wet. I wiped my cheek. I don''t know when it was wet there... It was a little cold. When the mobile phone rang, ye Ziyu quickly wiped two tears and took out his mobile phone in a panic. It''s a strange number. With a slight frown, ye Ziyu picked up, "hello? Who is it, please?" "Is it Ye Ziyu, Miss ye?" There was a nice female voice on the phone. "Yes, please..." "Hello, this is Lin Mao International." The other party said politely, "we saw some resume information you put on the Internet. Some German translations here are urgent. Do you have time to talk over there?" "Lin Mao International?" Ye Ziyu was stunned. "Yes!" Ye Ziyu''s brain crashed a little. After pausing for a few seconds, he suddenly responded, "yes, yes, when?" "If you are free now, you can come." The other party said, "these translators are in a hurry, and the workload is relatively large in the near future." "OK, I''ll be there right away..." Ye Ziyu happily asked the specific address and hurriedly turned to the place where she stopped her small pedal. This is a disappointment in love. Is the work going well? Unexpectedly, she thought about her work without the moonlight last night. How would she raise the medical expenses? I didn''t expect to receive the translation work of Linmao international today It''s not easy to get part-time jobs here. They also keep a large number of translators themselves. It''s estimated that this time it''s really too urgent for this good luck to fall on her. Ye Ziyu went to Linmao international, negotiated the translation time and price, and left with a pile of materials "President Lin," the Secretary dialed the inside line for Lin Qin after ye Ziyu left, "the eversion Department said that Miss ye had left with the translation materials." "Yes." Lin Qin answered. After hanging up the internal line, he took his mobile phone and dialed Lin Nan. Lin Nan is holding a cigarette in his mouth, holding a document in his hand, looking at it casually, and slightly wrinkling his eyebrows. The mobile phone vibrated on the table. He took off the cigarette and put it on the ashtray before picking it up. Seeing that it was Lin Qin, he picked it up, "big brother..." "Ye Ziyu has finished it." Lin Qin spoke. "Yes." Lin Nan answered faintly, looked at the information, frowned slightly, and threw it on the table. "I believe you. You don''t need to call me specifically?" "Dad asked me to tell you to come back here for dinner at the weekend." Lin Qin''s tone was mixed with a smile. Lin Nan has a headache. "Can''t you go?" In the whole family, he was most afraid of the uncle who appeared in the national news every three days. Anyway, no matter where he is now, he can always be scolded for some mistakes when he meets... He doesn''t dare to talk back in public or private, which is very disturbing. Lin Qin smiled. "You can''t come... Let your uncle call you back." "Oh, I''d better go!" Lin turned his eyes to the south. At the moment, where is he looking cold, proud and capable on the training ground?! After chatting with Lin Nannan again, Lin Qin hung up the phone. Lin Nanan just wanted to continue reading the information, and the internal phone rang. "Come to my office!" On the phone, the voice of brigade commander Ma Honghai came. "OK." Lin answered to the South and went to find Ma Honghai. "Sit down," said Ma Honghai, handing over a file. "The University of Munich delegation came to Yicheng to communicate. Your team will go to this protection action?!" Chapter 1767 "How did this action use us?" Lin frowned to the south. "Other teams either have tasks or are strengthening training recently. Haven''t you just finished training here?" Ma Honghai said naturally. "Shit," Lin Nan immediately rolled his eyes, "we have strong ability and deserve it?" Lin Nanan and Ma Honghai are senior colonel of the same level. When it''s not a scene, many two people will talk as casually as they forget to make friends with each other on weekdays. Ma Honghai laughed. "Those who can do more work!" He paused, "moreover, although it is said that there are children of political dignitaries inside, in fact, there are the son of the head of state inside, which can not be underestimated in terms of safety..." If someone with a heart knows that in case of any accident to the children of the head of state here, it will not only be an accident, but also a friendly issue between the two countries. "Hu Da..." Lin looked to the south to exchange information and looked at Ma Honghai suspiciously. "Well, the exchange is scheduled to be big." Lin Nan slightly raised his eyebrows, scratched a smile at the corners of his mouth, stuffed the information of the exchange group back into the file bag and got up, "OK, let''s go." Ma Honghai was stunned. Originally, he thought of some good reasons to persuade Lin to go south. Why didn''t he start, and the man agreed? When Lin Nannan left the office, Ma Honghai didn''t figure it out. Lin Nanan is definitely a person loved and hated by the military leaders. The ability is strong. Of course, the degree of his prick is definitely proportional to his ability... No way, who makes others have excellent military quality and proud capital? Generally speaking, this kind of protection task can''t reach the sharp knife team in Lin Nan''s sharp knife. It''s a little overqualified But it happens that the leisurely one these days is the silver fox special team. But it''s strange to say Recently, the training in the brigade has been very diligent, so that there is no gap for other teams except Lin Nanan. ¡­¡­ Lin Nan called Li Hao after returning to the team. "Captain!" "Let the first and second teams have a look at these materials and prepare a week-long protection mission next Monday." Lin Nannan handed the information to Li Hao. "Yes!" Li Hao answered and took the information to the team. Lin went south to the window. On the huge playground, there was no less training crowd because of the gloomy weather. The loud and strong trumpet sound was full of pride and dry clouds under masculinity. Lin raised his hand to the south, and his bony fingers gently knocked on the glass. The sound seemed to coincide with the chants of those people, and it seemed to be just an inadvertent move He narrowed his eyes slightly, which was a small movement when he was deep in thought. Ye Ziyu The scene of meeting Ye Ziyu in the moonlight last night suddenly crossed my mind, and a shallow smile crossed the corner of my mouth, as if it were cool and thin, but it made people feel deep. Lin put down his hand to the south, turned around and walked down the stairs with steady steps. At the bottom, some people were watching the two people lying on the withered grass in the middle pull their wrists. When they saw him coming, they grinned and asked, "Captain, who do you think will win?" Lin Nan sat cross legged on one side and looked at the two equal left and right hands, the sniper mouse, and the first commando a Qiang. They fell slightly to the side and rear, "what''s the bet?" "A thousand push ups!" The people behind him grinned. The dark skin with big white teeth and the simple smile at the moment made people feel a little cute. Lin nodded to the south, took back his body shape, looked at the mouse and ah Qiang, and smiled at the corners of his mouth, "add a bet..." he paused. Just when everyone looked at him curiously, he said, "the loser ran for 20 kilometers at night." Just when everyone was stunned, the two people who had been deadlocked had an instant result Lin looked to the South and looked at an unbelievable ah Qiang. He was not surprised. "When I speak, you pay attention to me. As the first raider, you always have no steady mind..." His voice was very calm, but no one dared to speak. Even, they all held their breath and dared not breathe. The mouse and a Qiang have got up and sat there cross legged. "Report!" Lin looked to the South and said to the mouse, "speak." "I asked to run 20 kilometers at night with ah Qiang..." the mouse said with bated breath. "Oh?" Lin smiled at the corner of his mouth. "Why?" "I''m too competitive with my teammates. I know the captain''s intention, but I don''t care about my teammates..." the mouse said, slightly drooping his shoulders and looking at Lin Nannan, "we are the people who can rest assured to give our back to each other and share weal and woe." As soon as his words fell, the people sitting around him immediately sat upright and said in a loud voice, "we are willing to participate in the night attack for 20 kilometers and share weal and woe." Lin Nan raised his eyebrows, glanced at ah Qiang and nodded, "OK..." he smiled, "let''s do a thousand push ups together now." "Yes!" Lin got up to the south, and they immediately adjusted their posture. While doing push ups, they shouted numbers in a loud voice. In the distance, an SUV parked not far from the gate of the brigade, and someone looked at it with the window open. "Is that Lin''s boy?" "Yes, chief!" Lang Xiaolin said with a smile. Looking around 60, the man with three flowers on his shoulders smiled and nodded, "he used to be a whirring child, but he also inherited the abilities of the Lin family..." "The boy is still pricking his head!" Lang Xiaolin''s tone was both love and hate. "Which good seedling didn''t come out?" The man smiled, closed the window and motioned to the driver to drive. "Do you have a bottom in your heart to give him the task this time?" "Seriously, it''s a little empty." Lang Xiaolin sighed, "I''m afraid this boy will turn back and be sentimental." "Alas, I hope it can be stabilized!" The man also sighed, "that thing has been delayed for more than ten years. Now it''s hard to find a breakthrough. Someone has to do it." "Yes, chief!" Lang Xiaolin also sighed deeply. He glanced at the crowd gathered together to do push ups outside the window of the car. Lin, who was leaning alone on the horizontal bar, went south. His eyes flashed a touch of helpless hope. "If he succeeds in his mission this time, he will retreat all over again. It is inevitable that he will be promoted the fastest in the whole army... I''m afraid." Sanhua smiled at the corners of her mouth and glanced at Lin Nan. There was a touch of emotion at the bottom of her eyes ¡­¡­ Sunday. Ye Ziyu looked at the materials he had translated and breathed out, "it''s done." She got up, put her things into her backpack and said to Wang Xiaoqin, who was lying in bed reading a novel, "Xiaoqin, I''ll send the translation materials." "Hey, will you come back for dinner later? I''ll wait for you?" Wang Xiaoqin asked. "No, you can eat it yourself!" Ye Ziyu said. After sending the information and receiving the money, she will go to see Xiaohua''s mother. "Ah?!" Wang Xiaoqin said, "Mo ran went to the city library. LAN LAN and someone in her family love each other. You have to be busy working part-time again... Alas, I''m lonely. I''d better indulge in the novel. Xiao thinks of my male master!" Chapter 1768 After laughing and scolding Wang Xiaoqin, ye Ziyu left the dormitory and went to Linmao International Today, the sun is just right, the spring breeze is blowing, and the air is warm. "This is your money for this translation," the Translation Department asked after paying Ye Ziyu the money. "By the way, there are some small jobs recently, including German and English. Do you want to take it?" "Good, good!" Ye Ziyu nodded hurriedly, "I can do anything." The man nodded with a smile and went to get the information. They read some of the German translations sent before. Ye Ziyu translated them very carefully, and some rare ones translated very well. Although the boss gave special instructions to use, it''s good that they have the ability. Otherwise, they will only suffer Ye Ziyu took the new information and left. Happily, he went to the people''s hospital. There is no need to go to the moonlight, and there is a good translation job to take over. For a junior foreign language student like her, it is no mistake to practice and earn money. Ye Ziyu went to buy some food before going to the hospital. ¡­¡­ In Xiaohua''s mother''s ward, the other two patients are not in. Someone is standing with his back to the door. Xiaohua''s mother''s face looks a little dignified. "How can you stop looking for Ziyu?" The low voice was indifferent and even mixed with some disgust. Xiaohua''s mother lies on the hospital bed because of her illness and looks at the man standing there in front of her, "you can''t..." "What can I do?" The man coldly interrupted Xiaohua''s mother, "since some things have caused harm, don''t pretend to be poor and show them to who?" After a pause, he said coldly, "I will give you a sum of money and you will leave Yicheng in the next two days. Otherwise... Don''t blame me for attacking your children." "Ye Quande, you can''t..." Xiaohua''s mother sat up with a surprised face, and her eyes were sad with fear. "What right do you have not to let me see Ziyu?" "Do you have any right? It''s not your has the final say..." Ye Quan de said coldly. "I am the last warning. If you touch Zi Yu again, don''t blame me for being rude!" Xiaohua''s mother''s face is getting worse and worse. "Ye Quande, I was sorry for Ziyu''s father, and I used a way to be with Ziyu''s father when my sister was on a business trip..." she said while crying, "but no matter how many mistakes, Ziyu is not wrong!" "Yes, Ziyu is right... But you killed her parents!" Ye Quande said, "it made her father have no face to face her mother. Only when he was on duty did he have an accident. It also made her mother leave with Ziyu without all of us knowing... Do you think you can make atonement if you adopt her?" Xiaohua''s mother was crying, "stop talking, stop talking..." "Qin Hua, you don''t want to make atonement in your life!" Ye Quande said coldly, "you killed Ziyu''s parents and pretended to be charitable. Don''t you feel sick?" "I didn''t know it would be like this..." Qin Hua covered his face with both hands and tears spilled from his fingers. "I didn''t know it would cause such consequences, and I didn''t know..." "There is no regret medicine in this world." Ye Quande said coldly, "Qin Hua, are you happy until Ziyu knows what you did and makes her hate you?" Qin Hua suddenly raised his face and looked at ye Quande in panic. The bottom of his eyes was full of resistance in panic. Ye Quande snorted coldly. Without saying anything more, he turned and left Just as his figure had just entered the elevator, the elevator next door arrived at the same time. Ye Ziyu happily carried the fruit to Qin Hua''s ward. When she got to the door of the ward, she heard a choking voice inside. With a slight frown, ye Ziyu slowly walked in, "mother Xiaohua, what''s the matter with you?" Qin Hua saw Ye Ziyu come in and flustered to wipe his tears with his hands "Mother Xiaohua, are you uncomfortable or..." Ye Ziyu put the fruit basket aside, sat down by the hospital bed and looked at Qin Hua painfully. "Where are you uncomfortable? I''ll call the doctor to show you." "I''m fine." Qin Hua pulled the corners of his mouth and said with a smile, "I just thought of the scene of you playing in the yard when you were a child... Now everyone is big, and most of them have been adopted. It''s a little sad." Ye Ziyu hugged Qin Hua, "mother Xiaohua, we''ve always been there!" "Hmm..." Qin Hua answered with a choking voice, and his face turned pale when he thought of what ye Quande had just said. Suddenly Qin Hua suddenly opened Ye Ziyu. "Ziyu, did you meet anyone when you just came here?" Ye Ziyu frowned and shook his head. "I haven''t met anyone... What''s the matter?" As soon as Qin Hua heard this, he secretly breathed a sigh in his heart, quickly shook his head, pulled the corners of his mouth and said with a smile: "it''s all right, I just ask casually..." "I thought someone else came to see you. Did you ask me if I saw it?" Ye Ziyu got up with a smile, opened the fruit basket, took an apple out and cut it for Xiaohua''s mother. "Xiaohua''s mother, I''ve found a part-time job as a translator these two days, and the income is very good... So you should take good care of your health and don''t worry about money." Qin Hua lay on the hospital bed and looked at Ye Ziyu''s bright smile and the tenacious flexibility in the bottom of his eyes. His heart was very sour. If it weren''t for her In fact, Ziyu can also live well. At least, Tang Luoyan will not appear. While he hurt Ziyu''s heart because of his responsibility to be with her, he will also let Ziyu face the embarrassment that the man he loves has become his brother-in-law. Ye Ziyu stayed with Qin Hua in the ward. After dinner, she left the hospital. The sunset has gradually disappeared behind the high-rise buildings, leaving only a little residual glow in the sky Although it is spring, the city still looks gray, and all the branches and leaves have not yet begun to sprout. Ye Ziyu rode back to school on a small pedal, and then something happened that she felt dog blood all her life Looking at the rear bumper hit by herself again, ye Ziyu felt like crying. Is she born to have a bad relationship with this Land Rover?! People stopped there twice, and she bumped into it like this Last time I could say it was because there was snow on the road and I couldn''t stop the car. What about this time?! Ye Ziyu shrunk the corners of his mouth. "This time it''s definitely because of that kiss. I''m filled with revenge!" Thinking like this in her heart, she said it out of her head. She didn''t know that there was someone behind her Li Hao held back his smile. The captain''s car has only been driving for a few months, that is, only when he doesn''t drive the army car occasionally. Why can''t someone get past the bumper of his car years ago and years later? His eyes fell on Lin Nannan''s dark face. Looking at Ye Ziyu, he felt that there was no one else. He seriously suspected that she was really retaliating for the captain''s kiss when she rode into a car parked on the roadside on campus! "Not because of a revenge kiss, but because of what?" Chapter 1769 Lin Nan''s faint voice came from behind Ye Ziyu. Under the gradually gray sky, there was a trace of cool breath. Ye Ziyu glanced, "this car probably breaks the brakes!" "Well, indeed..." Lin Nan sneered, "I''ve committed you!" Ye Ziyu''s body suddenly froze, and then he reacted. It was not his own brain mending plot, but it was true Li Hao already couldn''t laugh. When ye Ziyu turned around convulsively, he smiled with a slight laugh. With a scream of "ah", ye Ziyu seemed to see a ghost. When he was surprised, the weight of the small pedal was not well controlled, and the people and car fell to one side Just when he saw that he was going to be pressed by the small pedal, Lin grabbed her arm and pulled it back. She had been easily carried to him. Then a cold word came from overhead, "stupid!" Ye Ziyu''s face turned red, and Li Hao on one side couldn''t laugh. Li Hao felt that the woman must have been sent by heaven to find the captain unhappy Ye Ziyu didn''t dare to see Lin Nanan. At the thought of the first collision, he ran away... Others accompanied him to save once, and this time he hit again and was directly caught. If a person is guilty, he will lose momentum. No matter how many thoughts Ye Ziyu had at the moment, he had no thoughts. "The same is true for cycling on campus. You must not harm others or yourself on the road on weekdays?" Lin said coldly to the south. Ye Ziyu was unconvinced. "I''ve never hit a car, just you..." she gritted her teeth and looked up at Shanglin''s line of sight to the south. "I saw your car number, so... I was distracted for a moment." "Oh, I remember clearly." Lin said slowly to the south. Ye Ziyu was stunned at first, and then reacted to Lin Nanan''s meaning. Suddenly, his face turned red. As the night fell, the street lights in the campus gradually showed light. It hit Ye Ziyu''s face and combined with her reddish skin. The originally beautiful little face, like the charming apple, made people want to bite. "That..." Ye Ziyu glanced at the corner of his mouth, glanced at the rear bumper he hit again, and said, "how much do you charge for this repair?" "Why, don''t leave a note to escape this time?" Lin Nan''s voice was a little cool. Ye Ziyu suddenly looked at him, his eyes widened, and the corners of his mouth kept moving. He wanted to say something, but he didn''t know what to say?! "You... You..." "What are you?" Lin snorted coldly to the south. Ye Ziyu really wanted to die now. I wish there was a crack in the ground that could let her get in. She thought she didn''t know it, but it turned out that people knew from beginning to end that it was her! When did he know? No, I already knew when I saw her off at the bus stop that night?! Ye Ziyu grinned secretly, grabbed the corner of his clothes with his hand, and turned quickly in his mind, trying to explain Lin Nan looked coldly at Ye Ziyu''s tangled look, and his sight crossed Li Hao. "Yes!" Li Hao immediately understood and stepped forward to hold up the small pedal, "Miss ye, which building do you live in? I''ll send you the car..." "No, I''ll just ride back by myself." Ye Ziyu said hurriedly. "You accompany me to dinner." Lin opened his mouth in time to the south. "I''ve eaten!" "Oh," Lin Nan glanced at the rear bumper. "I''ll ask Li Hao to send you the repair fee." "..." Ye Ziyu took a breath from the corner of his mouth and gave in without restraint, "well, I''ll go to dinner with you!" She told Li Hao where to put the car. "You go back to the team first." Lin said to the South and motioned Ye Ziyu to get on the bus. "Yes!" Li Hao answered with a smile. He looked at Ye Ziyu, who was forced by his angry daughter-in-law. The corners of his mouth grinned again and rode the small pedal to the place Ye Ziyu said. Lin Xiangnan drove away from school. "What do you want to eat?" "I''ve eaten it. You can eat whatever you want..." Ye Ziyu said, suddenly remembering something. "Why are you in our school?" "Come and do something." Lin spoke faintly to the south. Tomorrow is the official visit and exchange. After arranging the protection work, he came to the university to discuss the process of the next week with the school staff. "Oh..." Ye Ziyu answered. For a moment, there was nothing in the car and became silent. Lin Nan glanced at Ye Ziyu, who was sitting there quietly, and looked back indifferently. There was a touch of complex emotion in the depths of his eyes, showing a little disgust. But the disgust just flashed by, so fast that he didn''t even find himself. The car stopped in front of a western restaurant. The elegant style, intoxicating lights and decoration make people feel relaxed. Lin Nan ordered some food and ordered a dessert and a glass of juice for ye Ziyu. "I ate..." In the last two words, ye Ziyu''s voice was lower than that of mosquitoes humming when Lin looked south. "Another glass of water." "OK, just a moment, please." After the waiter left, Lin Nan leaned slowly on the sofa, his eyes fell on Ye Ziyu''s face and examined her sharply. Being stared at like this, ye Ziyu felt a little flustered. He secretly clenched his teeth, suddenly raised his eyes, and began to look at Lin Nan with a big stab. Flat head, a little dark skin, but it is precisely because of this sunny complexion that adds a bit of beauty to this man. Last time I met in the moonlight, because of the special situation, she didn''t care to take a closer look. Later, she got into the car, and because of the light problem, although she was close, she didn''t see much At this moment, it was just a counterattack, but ye Ziyu suddenly looked at Lin Nanan and was a little stunned. This man is not the same as Tang Luoyan''s handsome with a touch of evil spirit in his elegance. His whole body is full of bloody temptation. In particular, when you look at his quiet eyes like the calm lake, you only feel that you will feel at ease inexplicably! She knows that feeling is... A sense of security! Ye Ziyu''s eyes involuntarily fell on Lin Nan''s lips. His lips are not thin or thick, but they are angular. Just like his breath, she couldn''t help thinking of the kiss that night. He seems to smoke, but his mouth doesn''t have an unbearable smell of smoke. On the contrary, the faint smell of tobacco makes people a little addicted to it "Thinking about how I feel when I kiss you?" Lin Nannan''s words suddenly came, with a touch of banter in a gentle way. "Hmm..." Ye Ziyu answered subconsciously. Suddenly, her thoughts stagnated, and she suddenly reacted. She looked at Lin Nan in horror, and her face turned red! Chapter 1770 "Who, who wants to be kissed by you?" Ye Ziyu was exposed and said in embarrassment, "I... I didn''t think about it!" "Then what are you thinking when you stare at me?" Lin smiled at the corner of his mouth. "Don''t you think about something related to me?" "I was thinking, how do you know it was me who hit your car last time?" Ye Ziyu blurted out. Lin Nan''s smile deepened a little. Looking at Ye Ziyu''s look of self loathing, his eyes deepened, "well, it was just cheating you, but you admit it now..." "When you were at school, you said clearly that you left a note!" Ye Ziyu said angrily. Lin Nan''s face was still light, but he put a warm smile on the corner of his mouth and said slowly, "I said to leave a note like last time... But I didn''t say you." His eyes were deep. "I''m a metaphor. You''re guilty of being a thief." ¡°¡­¡­¡± Ye Ziyu was a little speechless and choked. There is a kind of fool in this world who will mess with himself... That''s what she said. Ye Ziyu is a little stuffy. He has actually seen this man twice, but he is actually a man four times. He is a little gnashing his teeth in his heart. However, what ye Ziyu doesn''t know at the moment is that in fact... Plus on the way to the campus of Henan University, Lin Nanan has seen her five times. At the right time, the waiter served the meal. "Hello, what''s your name?" Ye Ziyu felt that the table was a little too stiff. "Lin Nan." Lin spoke faintly to the south. Ye Ziyu whispered his name and felt as if he had heard the whole name somewhere, but he couldn''t remember it for a moment. "Hello, my name is Ye Ziyu." Ye Ziyu thought and introduced himself politely. "Yes." Lin Nan still just answered faintly. Ye Ziyu looked at Lin Nan''s elegant way of eating, and suddenly became curious about his work. The man just now, call him... Captain?! "Lin Nanan, what do you do?" Ye Ziyu wondered whether this man, who knew Xi Hongwen, would also be the red one. "A soldier." Lin Nan''s answer is always simple and capable. Ye Ziyu waited for Lin Xiangnan to say two words. It was impossible. Turn your eyes secretly. Will this person talk? Let the girl start talking, and talk like this Ye Ziyu stopped talking. Holding his cheek, he looked out of the window, twirling the straw in his hand and drinking fruit juice. He was also careless. "Lin Nannan..." Ye Ziyu looked at the Land Rover parked outside and his voice was a little confused. "How do you know it was me for the first time?" Asked, looking at the man opposite. "I was in the cake shop on the side. You ran into a message and I watched it all the way." Lin Nan said without concealment. Ye Ziyu twitched at the corner of his mouth. "Do you think I''m particularly funny when you see the note?" "OK." Lin Nan raised his eyebrows and looked at Ye Ziyu. The corners of his mouth crossed and said with a smile, "but why did he walk alone from the courtyard the next night?" "I tell you, I was dumped by my boyfriend. My boyfriend asked me to tell his grandfather that I dumped him... Do you believe it?" Inexplicably, ye Ziyu said it easily to Lin Nanan, who was a stranger. "The problem is that you are willing," Lin said with deep eyes. "This is the root of the problem!" "..." Ye Ziyu turned his mouth and said that she was short of money, so she compromised for money. The topic ended again, Lin continued to eat in the south, Ye Ziyu continued to look at the night scene outside, secretly Tucao Lin to south this person make complaints about. The atmosphere was really weird. Ye Ziyu felt depressed. She simply took out her mobile phone and wanted to chat with a few people in the dormitory However, as soon as I opened wechat, a cold voice came, "at the dinner table, I don''t like someone playing with a mobile phone." "..." Ye Ziyu''s movements were stiff. He looked at Lin Nan''s line of sight and was surprised. "Excuse me, how old are you?" ¡°29¡£¡± Lin Nan said, raising his eyes and glancing across from her, and saw through her meaning, "such behavior has nothing to do with whether I''m old-fashioned or not, but with whether you''re polite or not!" Mobile phone, "Ye Ziyu," she said, "you are right, you have reason..." then, she dissatisfied with the small voice Tucao, "you make complaints about polite, hum!" She thought her voice was very small, indeed very small However, Lin Nanan, who had special ear training, still heard her voice clearly. Lin Nan smiled at the corner of his mouth without knowing it, but it was only a moment, and it converged completely. "Talk about your ex boyfriend?" Lin Nan glanced at the girl opposite him and was suddenly a little curious. "There''s nothing to talk about." Ye Ziyu scratched a touch of astringency on the corner of his mouth, and even his originally relaxed voice was stained with sadness. "I''m about to be my brother-in-law. What can I talk about?" Lin Nan frowned slightly. Obviously, he didn''t expect his ex boyfriend to become his brother-in-law. However, the third sister-in-law to Zixiao, or his girlfriend became a little aunt! Well, it seems normal to think so. Lin drooped his eyes to the south, and a smile crossed his eyes. That kind of smile is different from his coldness and arrogance in Yicheng, but it is somewhat stubborn in Los Angeles. Just Lin Nan suddenly frowns. Ye Peiyao''s nearest boyfriend seems to be Tang Luoyan? Thinking, a surprised voice came from the front. "South?!" Tang Lu''s smile had not stopped. When she saw that the person sitting opposite Lin Nan was Ye Ziyu, she was surprised. "Ziyu?" Ye Ziyu didn''t expect to meet Tang Lu. He pulled awkwardly at the corners of his mouth, got up and said hello, "are you coming to dinner, too?" "Yes!" Tang Lu quickly restrained her surprise, smiled at Lin Nannan, vaguely attached to Ye Ziyu''s ear and asked, "did you leave my brother because of Nannan?" Ye Ziyu''s body stiffened and his heart was astringent. Tang Luoyan and ye Peiyao really played a good hand. The two people who cheated and seduced their brother-in-law have now become mutual consolation, and she, who was really injured, has become a villain. ha-ha! What does it mean to "Are you alone?" Lin Nan slightly raised his eyes to Tang Lu, but his eyes crossed Ye Ziyu''s pale face. "Yes..." "We just finished." When Tang Lu''s pronunciation came out and even a complete sound didn''t come out, Lin Nan interrupted what she was going to say, "come early and we can still be together." Tang Lu''s face was slightly stiff, but she quickly recovered and said, "I''m waiting for my friends." "Well, let''s go first. I''ll send Ziyu back to school." Lin Nan said. The man had already stood up, slightly stretched out his hand and motioned to Ye Ziyu. Chapter 1771 Ye Ziyu stared at the outstretched hand. For a moment, he forgot his reaction, but looked at Lin Nan slightly from the corner of his mouth. Lin glanced slightly to the south, and ye Ziyu explored his hand. While holding it, he attached himself to take her bag and carried it to his hand. "I''ll go first and get together when I''m free." "OK." Tang Lu answered generously with a smile. Ye Ziyu pulled at the corners of his mouth, nodded with Tang Lu, and was pulled away by Lin to the south. Tang Lu looked at Lin Nan and took Ye Ziyu''s hand to settle the account, and then left. The original dignified smile in her eyes gradually faded away, replaced by a sense of anger. Ye Ziyu, my brother seduced your sister, so you came to seduce the man I like... Right? Who is Lin Nan? What kind of family is the Lin family? Why do you like you? Tang Lu''s eyes showed a touch of malice, and the corners of her mouth flashed a sneer. She slightly clenched her hand, went to one side and sat down. Her eyes fell out of the window, ignoring the waiting waiter. Lin opened the door to the south. When ye Ziyu got on the car, he closed the co pilot''s door and turned to the driver''s seat. Back up, move forward... Drive into the road and join the traffic. All the movements showed the fluency of Lin Nan''s usual ability, without the slightest muddle. "Thank you..." Ye Ziyu said silently. "Huh?" Lin Nan didn''t seem to hear it, and glanced sideways at the people in the co driver''s seat. Ye Ziyu''s face was a little red, but the second "thank you" was speechless. I don''t know why. She thinks Lin Nannan heard it. She just pretended not to hear it Although, she doesn''t know why she feels so. Thinking of this, ye Ziyu suddenly felt a little elated. She secretly glanced at the man''s side face and bit her lower lip. Just now, the trace of astringency was inexplicably gone. The hand curled up, which had just been mastered by the University. His hands are very dry, and there are cocoons in the mouth of the tiger in the palm... Should it be left by holding the gun for a long time? Thinking, ye Ziyu lowered her eyes and slightly spread out her palm. There was a faint smile on her mouth. She didn''t even know it. Car, I don''t know when it stopped. Ye Ziyu fell into his own thoughts and didn''t find it at all. After a while, when she finally felt it, she raised her eyes and saw that there was a path in front of her. The dim and disrepair street lamps were emitting a faint orange light, but only casting a small light shadow on the ground. Even though the trees on both sides have no leaves, the shadows of the trees are still whirling under such lights Inexplicably, the atmosphere here gives people a kind of depressed... Panic. Ye Ziyu swallowed secretly, twisted his eyebrows and turned his head to look at Lin Nan, "how did it stop?" Lin Nan looked at Ye Ziyu''s eyes. The woman seemed to always entertain herself. "Do you think..." Lin Nannan made a slow sound, with a trace of danger in his voice. "Do something here... It''s exciting, but it won''t be disturbed?" Ye Ziyu was stunned. Please forgive her for not having enough brain capacity at the moment What does Lin Nan mean by that? Of course, she was not stupid enough not to understand the underlying meaning. But... How?! "Oh!" Just as ye Ziyu''s mind was spinning, Lin Nanan suddenly fished her and wrapped her lips. Ye Ziyu suddenly stares at the hot eyes and forgets the reaction. He can only let Lin Nan''s lips and tongue turn and stir wantonly in her mouth and absorb her taste. Ye Ziyu''s mind is empty. If I was kissed by Lin Nan for the first time, I still know anger. But this time, she unexpectedly Ye Ziyu subconsciously closed his eyes. Under Lin Nanan''s kiss, it was the beginning of instinctive response. Although that kind of action is extremely clumsy. Just when ye Ziyu and Lin kissed "selfless" to the south, in the distance, a car light crossed, and then a car crossed Land Rover and drove away "It seems that Lin Nanan really likes this girl?!" Luo Hai tilted his body and looked at the car gradually thrown away from the glass behind the car. Xi Hongwen''s eyes drooped slightly, and his mouth was filled with a shallow smile. That smile was full of reflection. "According to my old man, Lin Nannan will follow his team to protect the exchange students from the University of Munich tomorrow..." Xi Hongwen raised his eyes. "Lin Nannan stopped taking such a task three or four years ago and would rather be idle." "You mean, his purpose is actually Ye Ziyu?" Luo Hai frowned, "but, shouldn''t it? If it''s Ye Xuan''s side, it''s better not to engage in ye Peiyao?" Xi Hongwen looked across Luohai and hissed coldly, "the problem is..." Xi Hongwen didn''t go on. He just glanced over the reversing mirror and looked inside. He could not see the road of the car behind him. The strange smile on the corner of his mouth was deeper and deeper. ¡­¡­ Lin Nanan was going to let Ye Ziyu go, but when she responded clumsily, he suddenly felt a little reluctant There is a little smell of fruit juice in his mouth. Between his lips and tongue, it is soft waxy and sweet that has not been developed. Has he been silent for too long? Unexpectedly, a kiss can make him addicted A cry of "um" came, because ye Ziyu was butted in the middle of the seat, and his back was a little chrome painful. Lin Nan seemed to be suddenly pulled back to his thoughts by such a cry, frowned slightly and let go of Ye Ziyu. Ye Ziyu gasped, and the faint smell of tobacco between her lips suddenly disturbed her heart. Lin looked south at Ye Ziyu. She also looked at her eyes. The two people were instantly on each other for only two or three seconds. Ye Ziyu was stunned and quickly turned his head, and his cheeks were hot in an instant. She found that she blushed easily in front of Lin Nan. She blushed when she choked, and blushed when she thought of something... She blushed again before he said anything. Ye Ziyu was embarrassed. Afraid of being seen by Lin Nan, he immediately stared at him, "you, why did you kiss me again?" How could she escape Lin Nan''s eyes with that little thought? She smiled secretly and listened to him say, "well, I thought it tasted good last time, but I just can''t remember... I''ll try it again!" "..." Ye Ziyu grinned at the corners of her mouth and said with gnashing teeth, "last time was my first kiss, this time is..." she suddenly shut up and looked at Lin Nan''s suddenly hot eyes, before she realized what she had said and was embarrassed. "Well, it''s better for girls to love themselves..." Lin Nan looked at Ye Ziyu''s slightly open lips that had just been kissed by himself. The Adam''s apple rolled subconsciously. Just when her face turned red, she grabbed her and wanted to kiss again. Ye Ziyu put his reflective hands against Lin Nan''s chest, "what are you doing?" "Well, I feel a little addicted..." Lin Nannan said faintly, clasping Ye Ziyu''s head and grabbing the two lips again. Chapter 1772 When ye Ziyu was lying on the dormitory bed, he closed his eyes and was full of Lin Nan''s kisses. Open your eyes... What you see is Lin Nan''s face. She thinks she''s crazy! It''s not sadistic, it must be lonely and cold in space... It will fall under the lips of a man who only knows his name! Mainly, the man who kissed her was taken for granted. What is the taste? Try it again if you can''t remember it? What is addiction? Do it again? "Leaf, what are you doing?" A voice came vaguely with a trace of bleary. "Huh?" Ye Ziyu was stunned. In the dark, he looked up at Song Lanlan who was with him. Song Lanlan closed her eyes and said, "you kept turning over this night... In other words, are you still going to sleep?" "..." Ye Ziyu said with some guilt because he was in a mess in his mind and didn''t realize his actions for a moment, "Lanlan, I promise... Don''t move." "Yes." Song Lanlan smashed her mouth. "Go to sleep. The exchange group will come tomorrow. There must be a lot of things over there in the student union." She also turned over. "Although you don''t have much task in your junior year this time, as the learning bully of your department, you''d better go to bed early in case!" Ye Ziyu smiled and knew that song Lanlan was teasing. He smiled and scolded twice and closed his eyes The next day, the pace of spring was closer, and there was a warm smell of spring in the sun. The exchange group arrived at 10 o''clock, because the people accompanying them had the children of dignitaries, and the protection was also very systematic this time. The party first visited the school, then went to the foreign language department and communicated with some representatives of the foreign language department... Then, during lunch time, the party went to the most famous No. 2 canteen in Yinan campus. If you ask how famous the second canteen in the South Campus of Hom university is, I''m afraid many people will say that the biggest purpose of trying to get into Hom university is because of the second canteen. The food here often needs to be crushed to eat. When it''s not crowded, it''s definitely the same as today. There''s a special reception. "Wow, that leading soldier brother is so handsome..." "Yes, yes, look at the height, physique and temperament. God... Sure enough, good men have been handed over to the state!" "Hey, it doesn''t seem to feel good?" "You should have seen two bars..." "But it looks like it''s in its twenties and thirties?!" "No matter how old he is, I just want to rush over and ask if he has a girlfriend..." "Ha ha ha..." Suddenly, a group of people around laughed, but the line of sight still fell on Lin Nan, whose face was indifferent and his eyes were steady. Although Ye Ziyu has seen Lin Nanan several times, he always wears casual clothes. He has never seen him in military uniform. He said he was just a soldier At the age of 29, there are two bars and four bars. If only one soldier, how many people in the whole country will vomit to death?! His ears were full of talk about brother Bing, but ye Ziyu just looked at Lin Nannan and gradually lost his mind Last night, the man kissed her in the car... It seems that his breath is still in his mouth at the moment. Ye Ziyu slightly opened his mouth. Maybe he was nervous and swallowed, but his eyes involuntarily moved with Lin Nan. Unlike casual clothes, Lin Nanan, who wears the spring and autumn military uniform, is more and more tall and straight... It seems that this man should belong to the army by nature. Whether he set off the military uniform or the military uniform blessed him... In people''s eyes, in addition to being comfortable, he is... Fascinating. "Ye, this senior colonel is really handsome, more than Tang Luoyan..." Wang Xiaoqin''s words were rejected by Zhou Mo ran and stopped. She suddenly covered her mouth, raised her lips, and looked at Ye Ziyu with a tangled and guilty face. However, ye Ziyu didn''t look at her at all. She didn''t even hear what Wang Xiaoqin just said. Because Lin Nan and others came towards them. There was a murmur of depression around him. Ye Ziyu just stood there blankly, moving his eyes with Lin Nan''s figure. Lin Nanzheng explained something to the people next to him and said a few words. His eyes crossed Ye Ziyu in the crowd. They looked at each other, but for a moment, he withdrew indifferently and continued to explain without any emotional leakage. Ye Ziyu suddenly felt a little lost. Although he clearly knew that he could not be like her on such an occasion, he just didn''t know why. His feeling of ignoring her made her feel a little uncomfortable. The party went to the second canteen. ¡­¡­ After watching the excitement, the onlookers dispersed at once. "Leaf, what''s the matter?" Zhou Mo ran frowned slightly when she saw Ye Ziyu pulling the rice on the plate. Ye Ziyu was stunned, then smiled and said, "it''s all right. I''m just thinking about translation." "I think you cleaned up in the morning and brought back a lot?" Wang Xiaoqin interrupted and looked at the position several tables apart. "Later, we might as well wholesale LAN LAN to someone''s dormitory in her house. Anyway, half the time is people there." Zhou Moran smiled at Ye Ziyu and heard Ye Ziyu say, "I brought a lot of translation yesterday. There is a class in the afternoon. After that, I''ll go to the library and turn some out first." "Well, Xiaoqin and I will go there in the afternoon. We have a text to write." Zhou Mo ran spoke at the right time. "OK, I''ll see you at the old place of the library." Ye Ziyu answered. afternoon. When ye Ziyu arrived at the library, Zhou Moran and ye Ziyu had arrived. Unexpectedly, song Lanlan was also there. The four girls greeted each other with a smile and did their own things Time passed with each other''s concentration and busyness, as if the weather had darkened in the twinkling of an eye, and the lights in the campus were gradually on. Sitting near the window, ye Ziyu suddenly looked out of the window at the light that had not yet been fully lit, and gradually lost his mind. Last night, it was about this time that she hit Lin Nan''s car. Ye Ziyu couldn''t help laughing at the corner of his mouth and thought of the note he left Lin Nan a message for the first time. However, at the thought of Lin Nan''s indifferent glance at noon, he felt inexplicably blocked up "What do you think?" Song LAN is opposite. She lies on the table and asks in a low voice. Wang Xiaoqin slightly offended Ye Ziyu. "It''s like stealing fishy. At a glance... Hum!" Ye Ziyu looked at the ambiguous eyes of several people and stared, but his face turned red uncontrollably. The three girls looked at each other and looked like they were going to be tortured. It''s also a pity that we don''t dare to laugh and play in the library. Otherwise, we must start interrogation immediately "Let''s eat first." Zhou Mo ran spoke. Several people smiled and nodded. After packing up, they went out of the library and went to the canteen Just as I was passing through a small forest, suddenly, a voice came from one side of the teaching building, "Ye Ziyu!" Ye Ziyu, Zhou Moran and others subconsciously looked at the voice and saw Lin Nan put his hand in the military trouser pocket, with a military cap between his arms and his body, and walked towards them Chapter 1773 Looking at Lin Nannan, Wang Xiaoqin has begun to take pink bubbles all over her eyes. Song Lanlan was also excited, but it was Zhou Mo ran, or that light Ran Ran Ran. She just twisted her eyebrows slightly and had some doubts. Ye Ziyu was in the same place. At this moment... Looking at Lin Nannan who came over, in fact, he had no idea. Because the brain is empty. Lin Nanan ignored the appearance of several people, and stood in front of Ye Ziyu. "I need a translator temporarily. I just met you, just you..." "I haven''t eaten yet." When ye Ziyu finished, he grinned secretly. He also despised his brain circuit. Lin Nan looked at the change of her expression and a faint smile crossed her eyes. On one side, song Lanlan fiercely attacked Ye Ziyu. Her lips didn''t understand. She bit her teeth and whispered, "there''s a handsome man. What can I eat? Lose weight! You can eat when you look at your face... Okay?!" "..." Ye Ziyu twitched at the corners of his mouth. "Ye Ziyu, when you come back, we''ll have a good interrogation..." Song Lanlan said, looking at Lin Nannan with a piercing look in his eyes. This time, he said without pressing his voice, "interrogation, how did we know ye and the soldier brother." Wang Xiaoqin stepped forward with an intoxicated face, "Hello, I''m wang Xiaoqin from YeYe dormitory. Are you..." Lin glanced at Ye Ziyu with a light glance to the south, and saw her show her teeth, blush and wink at Wang Xiaoqin. Her face collapsed, and she could hardly wait to find a ground to drill in. He smiled secretly and took back his sight. Lin Nannan said faintly, "little fish''s friend, Lin Nannan." "Oh..." Suddenly, Wang Xiaoqin and song Lanlan suddenly turned an exclamation word of "Oh" out of the eighteen corners of the mountain road. The two looked at each other, nodded their heads in a ''I understand'' and listened to Wang Xiaoqin say with a smile, "friend... Tut Tut, there''s an exclusive nickname!" "Little fish..." Song Lanlan raised her eyebrows and looked at Ye Ziyu, who already had an unknown expression on her face. Her eyes were full of ambiguity and looked at Lin Nannan, "you won''t tell us, are you a cat?!" Lin Xiang dropped his eyes to the South and smiled. He didn''t admit or refuse. Ye Ziyu stares at Lin Nanan and doesn''t respond to the deep meaning of his friends'' jokes. She found that Lin Nannan looked cold and faint. In fact, he was a Dark Lord. Little fish Shit, when will he call her little fish? How did she know?! "I didn''t..." Ye Ziyu just wanted to say that she didn''t have time, but Wang Xiaoqin pushed her and stopped her. She stumbled under her feet, tragically, and crashed into Lin Nan''s arms. Ye Ziyu was like getting an electric shock. Under the continuous smile of several girls, she hurried to jump fast. She looked at Lin Nan with a dry red face and stared back at Wang Xiaoqin. "Go." Lin Nan Nan didn''t give ye Ziyu another chance to refuse. He grabbed her hand and left. "Lin Nan, you let go!" "Yes!" Lin answered to the south, but he didn''t let go. "..." Ye Ziyu bared his teeth and stared at Lin Nanan, gritted his teeth and whispered, "Hey, you wear a military uniform and be more solemn." "Yes." Lin turned to the South and looked at her, "men in military uniforms are also men with normal needs!" "..." Ye Ziyu was speechless. There''s nothing wrong with that! Ye Ziyu snorted softly, and resigned himself to Lin''s stabbing to the south. Fortunately, it''s dinner time now. There are few people around here. It''s dark again Otherwise, when people in the school see Lin holding himself to the south, they won''t be able to turn over any waves tomorrow?! "Hello!" "Huh?" "My name is Ye Ziyu. You can call me ye Ziyu... What little fish?" "Didn''t your roommate say? I''m a cat." Lin Nannan answered smoothly. He felt that ye Ziyu''s dormitory people''s jokes were very good. "..." Ye Ziyu lost his temper completely. She decided to shut up, or she would choke or be angry every minute when talking to this man. At this moment, ye Ziyu, who was angry, still didn''t react at all... The connection between fish and cat. Their voices drifted away with the figure. The other three people in the dormitory were still in place. They looked at the two people who gradually disappeared under the less bright street lights. "Can''t you imagine that ye and this twenty-four cents know each other?!" "No wonder she looked a little strange when she visited brother Bing at noon," Wang Xiaoqin said Zhou Mo ran looked at Wang Xiaoqin and didn''t answer... Just looked at the direction of the shadow, and said, "let''s go and have dinner." The three girls walked to the canteen together However, when turning around, one of them looked at the place where there was no human shadow, and his eyes twinkled with strange eyes. ¡­¡­ Xi Hongwen and Luo Hai are drinking tea in the army dormitory. If there is no accident, they can come down in nearly a month. They always go in and out together. If they are transferred, they must be transferred together. "What did uncle say?" Luo Hai asked. Xi Hongwen, holding a cup in his hand, gently blew the floating tea, with an unpredictable look on his face. Luo Hai didn''t urge him either. He waited for him to drink the tea before listening to him say: "I''m afraid Lin Nannan won''t stop me from Jin, but it may push me to the side of group a army." "..." Luo Hai immediately frowned. Xi Hongwen sneered, gently shook the cup, drank again, and suddenly said, "this tea is not bad..." Luo Hai was carrying it in his heart. Suddenly, listening to Xi Hongwen boasting about tea, he suddenly frowned and looked puzzled. "Send this to number two." Xi Hongwen smiled. "The old man has become more and more infatuated with tea recently." Luo Hai reacted and then smiled, "isn''t Lin Nan''s achievement today just based on the Lin family''s contacts and his slippery strength?" He hissed, "you''re just too proud. Otherwise, the Xi family''s position is no worse than the Lin family, and you''re really not as good as Lin Nan?" When his words fell, he hissed again. Xi Hongwen brushed a sneer at the bottom of his eyes and continued to drink tea. However, when he lowered his eyes slightly, his eyes were already cold Some things, people should know how to hide. Only by hiding can we go further Lin Nannan is capable. Unfortunately, his edge is too leaky. After all, it''s not a good thing. The world has never been black, white or gray. People don''t like things that are too bright "How sure are you of going to the B group army this time?" Luo Hai opened his mouth at the right time and subconsciously looked at the tea can. After all, what kind of tea can''t you get for the position of the second chief? Xi Hongwen chuckled, "wait and see..." his eyes sank. "Lin family, something will happen sooner or later." Chapter 1774 "Thank you very much tonight." Ihad, the leader of the exchange student, thanked Lin Nannan and said in English. Lin smiled to the South and replied in English: "it''s a private affair tonight. It''s not good for people who use the school..." he said slightly, "besides, before you come, your sister called me and asked me to take care of you." Ihad smiled and said vaguely, "my sister always praised you when she went back from her last visit to your country." Lin Xiang did not change his color to the south, but still smiled faintly. After chatting with ehad, he left with Ye Ziyu. Ye Ziyu was a little depressed. He looked back at ehad who was still watching him off at the door and couldn''t help humming. Of course, she fell into her own thoughts and didn''t know she was humming. However, when ehad saw her turn around and give her a kiss with a smile, ye Ziyu hurried back and made a few noises in her stomach. "Ihad is a person with status," Lin Nan said in a gloomy voice after taking Ye Ziyu away from the exchange area. "People are also handsome. They are taller than me. They have brown hair and blue eyes. They look charming..." Ye Ziyu frowned and looked at Lin Nannan for unknown reasons. "Then?" "Then?" Lin snorted coldly to the south, "you can move Xi Hongwen or ehad." There was a trace of cynicism in his unclear words. Maybe it was because ye Ziyu had been helping her since he "knew" Lin Nannan. Suddenly he said such cold and mean words from his mouth. She was stunned for a moment. Lin Nan ignored her and just walked forward It was still copied in the military trouser pocket with one hand, and the military cap was clamped at the bend of the arm. Obviously, it is a casual action, but because of his tall and straight posture, he forcibly makes this action charming and serious. "Lin Nan, what do you mean by that?" Ye Ziyu finally reacted and hurriedly caught up with him. However, Lin Nan ignored her and walked forward. Because he was tall and had long legs, although his steps were rhythmic, they were in the subconscious step of the soldiers. When ye Ziyu caught up, he was a little panting. "You mean that I seduced Xi Hongwen and now I Seduce ehad?" Ye Ziyu stared angrily. "That''s what you said!" Lin glanced at her indifferently. "..." Ye Ziyu choked. Because she did say it herself, but Lin Nan didn''t say it. Shit! Ye Ziyu scolded secretly. Looking at Lin Nan''s arrogant appearance, he was inexplicably angry and stopped chasing, so he watched him go forward. Obviously he asked her to be an interpreter, but now it''s her fault? Besides, listen to this man talking to Erhard. Where do you need her as an interpreter? Although she helped Ihad in German, it was obvious that there was no obstacle for Ihad and Lin to communicate in English. Thinking of this, looking at the figure of Lin walking farther and farther to the south, ye Ziyu couldn''t tell what he felt in his heart. He just felt as if there was a breath blocking her heart, so that she couldn''t relieve it. Without thinking about it, ye Ziyu plans to go back to the dormitory by another way. But with each step, Lin Nan''s voice of disdain and sneer was completely in his mind, and his heart was weighed down again. She and Tang Luoyan have been together for a long time, but they are only holding hands. On the one hand, Tang Luoyan doesn''t like her, that is, forehead kiss or cheek kiss at most. The first positive contact with Lin Nannan lost his first kiss, and indirectly lost the second and third time She suddenly felt that there was something wrong with her state of mind, but she couldn''t stand what others said when she was kissed and helped. What can''t stand it? She is not who he is, and he is not who she is! Thinking like this, ye Ziyu not only didn''t relieve the congestion in his heart, but... It''s even more blocked! "Shit, I''m so bored!" Ye Ziyu cursed angrily. Suddenly "Who?" A voice came from the dark in front, with a hint of tension. Ye Ziyu hasn''t responded yet. While the man has been swept into his arms with a strong force, his mouth is covered. According to the trend, the man is surrounded by the belt and flashes into the corner of one side Ye Ziyu''s eyes widened. Her first reaction was... She wouldn''t be so lucky. Did she encounter any campus pervert?! "Oh, oh, oh..." Ye Ziyu wanted to struggle, but there was a low cold hiss from his head, "shut up!" Ye Ziyu''s pupils widened. Only when he adapted to the darkness did he dare to look up Lin Nan saw that she was quiet, put down her hand covering her mouth, and looked slightly at the place where she made a noise. "Honey, why would anyone come here?" There was a man''s voice, which was full of obscene ambiguity. There was a woman who said, "there are so many places to go, but you have to be here..." "Didn''t you say you wanted excitement?" The man''s voice is more and more obscene, accompanied by the woman''s low and shallow wheezing voice. "Obviously you want to stimulate, but you have to rely on me..." the woman''s voice was somewhat intermittent. "If people in the school see it, be careful that your wife, the headmaster, won''t let you be." "..." Ye Ziyu''s eyes widened. Even if she was stupid, she knew what she had just nearly broken?! What kind of shit luck did she take, but she didn''t want to go south with Lin, so she broke the derailment door and field door. Lin Nan looked at Ye Ziyu''s face, which was gradually red because of the two people''s work. The look was even more unpredictable, and he couldn''t help joking. "Come on... Come on..." The woman''s voice came breathlessly, and ye Ziyu''s head exploded in an instant. If she wants to escape to the south, she can be held down by Lin. Ye Ziyu looked at Lin Nannan puzzled, and she didn''t react until this moment... They were basically close to each other. "Teng" for a moment, ye Ziyu''s face was completely red. In this ear, there was a clear and incomparable battle sound. His body was close to a man. Ye Ziyu''s brain was completely out of his control and kept "aftertaste" Lin Nanan''s kiss. She suddenly felt that she was a little thirsty. She was afraid that Lin Nan would see through what she thought at the moment. She pushed him. Seeing that he couldn''t move, she prayed anxiously and looked at him. Lin Nanan not only didn''t let go of her, but even attached himself to her, which made Ye Ziyu''s body freeze immediately. "Let''s go now..." Lin Nannan said slowly in a low voice. "You said you broke your headmaster''s theft... Huh?" He didn''t go on, but what did he mean? Ye Ziyu didn''t understand very well. Ye Ziyu wanted to cry without tears. He also clenched his teeth and whispered, "is it right here to listen?" Lin Nan pondered slightly, looked at Ye Ziyu and said seriously, "you can choose to do..." Chapter 1775 "Lin Nan!" Ye Ziyu hurriedly and dryly interrupted Lin Nanan''s words. He didn''t dare to speak loudly. He could only blush and stare at him, "you''re dirty." Lin Nan was slightly stunned, and then said with a cold hum, "I''m dirty?" His voice became colder and colder. "Ye Ziyu, what are you thinking? I mean, you can choose to sit still, but what are you thinking?" "..." Ye Ziyu suddenly "clattered" at the cold sight of Shanglin to the south, but his face became more red. This time, it''s not caused by listening to those voices. That kind of hot, shy and embarrassed... It feels different under some messy and beautiful scenery. It seems that something has wrinkled a pool of spring water and turned up layers of ripples. "Ye Ziyu, don''t say you''re a yellow haired girl. I''m not interested..." Lin Nannan said in a cold voice. "Also, I''m a man, but I''m also a soldier!" Then he got up, but he didn''t move. Ye Ziyu bit his lower lip and then moved back and forth. He wanted to say something, but at last he just hung his eyes. I don''t know why. She felt a little uncomfortable when Lin Nan said so. When he took her away at that time, he said that he was a soldier but also a man... Now, he was a man but also a soldier. Yes, such a person... But she thinks he is so dirty. From that "tracking" to this time, she always seemed to think a little bad of him. Mingming, he is very kind to her! "I''m sorry..." Ye Ziyu whispered, raising her eyes to secretly look at Lin Nan''s expression. But who knows, he just looked at her fiercely, which made her suddenly change her face. Lin Nan looked at Ye Ziyu''s face with an unknown expression and said in a disgusted voice, "Ye Ziyu, you are a Summoner with your own trouble." When ye Ziyu said this, he raised his lips and lowered his eyes again without refuting. Because, as if she had made a few contacts with Lin Nannan, she was causing him trouble The atmosphere between them was a little strange, but it was also strange. However, the smell floating in the air was mixed with rough breathing and charming chanting. It was a harsh sound. Whether ye Ziyu is a girl or not, she doesn''t want to be obscene with a man who is full of masculinity, but... My concubine can''t do it! Ye Ziyu, you''re a girl, aren''t you? Ye Ziyu secretly feigned herself. The man''s breath in her nose and the temperature she felt because of her proximity made her involuntarily poke out her tongue and lick it gently, as if there were some dry lips. She made such a small move, but when she fell in Lin''s sight to the south, it made him tighten his lower abdomen, as if there was something that made him uncomfortable. He coughed secretly and hurriedly distanced himself from ye Ziyu. It''s good for him to have self-control, but he''s vigorous in the end. Listening to the war, he can''t sit still with soft fragrance in his arms! Both men and women with a little messy thoughts didn''t speak, but their breath seemed to be getting thick. Fortunately, the two field men probably stopped before long because the environment was too exciting and their ability was limited Listening to the two men rustling, tidying up their clothes and whispering flirting, ye Ziyu clenched his lips to keep himself from making a sound. However, when she saw the woman because her eyes adapted to the darkness, she couldn''t help crying out... Fortunately, Lin Nan quickly covered her mouth. "Sounds like a noise?" The woman suddenly grabbed the headmaster''s arm and her voice was tense. The headmaster looked around, "how can there be people here at this time? It''s probably wild cats..." Women have some worries and look around. In the end, they are afraid because they are doing immoral things. The headmaster took the opportunity to kiss the woman on the cheek and said in an obscene voice, "if you want me to hold you, just say it. Brother, I like it too... I''ll take you out of the forest." With that, he really took up the woman, flirted with her and left. After going far away, Lin Nannan released Ye Ziyu. Ye Ziyu seemed to be in shock and murmured in her voice, "it''s Miss Meng of our department. She''s serious at ordinary times." Said, she suddenly shook her head and sighed, "however, our headmaster is 60 years old, and we still have physical strength to hold a woman princess. It''s also... Strong." Lin glanced at the corner of his mouth and felt that ye Ziyu''s brain circuit was somewhat... Well, it''s indescribable, but it''s interesting. During the day today, he found that there was some ambiguity between the headmaster and the reception teacher of the school exchange group. Unexpectedly, I heard them mention this place again. Originally, I didn''t think much. After all, there are tasks in this world besides close people... How can he manage other people''s affairs?! Walking at that time, I found that ye Ziyu didn''t follow up. When I returned and saw her walking far away, I had a bad heart and hurried to catch up with her Sure enough, he hesitated for another second. I''m afraid the girl will be put on small shoes and then drop out of school. Ye Ziyu also thought that teacher Meng could lead the exchange of students this time. Is it because of the hidden rules? He suddenly felt the hot eyes and subconsciously looked at Lin Nan. His face was uncontrollable and red again. "That... I... you..." Ye Ziyu grinned secretly and tried to slow down his heart. Unfortunately, the more nervous you are, the faster your heart beats, and you''re about to break through your chest. "We thought nothing had happened at night." Ye Ziyu hurriedly put down a sentence, pushed Lin to the South and hurried to the direction of the dormitory building Lin Nan sneered at him with a funny smile. His eyes turned to one side and watched Ye Ziyu escape like the plague. He didn''t chase after him, but he picked up the military cap that fell to the ground and bounced the ash. At the right time, the bottom of the eyes was cold, but the corners of the mouth raised an arc like nothing. In the suddenly quiet environment, there is a sense of inexplicable treachery and sadness. ¡­¡­ Ye Ziyu almost ran all the way to the dormitory building She didn''t know whether she wanted to stay away from Lin Nan quickly or because she was in a panic, she chose to take a shortcut. But if she knew that she would meet the person in front of her by taking a shortcut, ye Ziyu felt that she would rather stay with Lin Nanan and let him stare at him with a cold look. Well, that''s what she understood as her hot eyes! "How did you get here so late?" Tang Luoyan said, glancing lightly at the direction Ye Ziyu came, and his face was a little dark. Ye Ziyu sneered, "you take care of me!" She wanted to pass him and leave. Unfortunately, the dog''s blood was caught by the man''s wrist. Then there was a "pa" sound, and a slap that was less than thinking... Fell on Tang Luoyan''s face. Chapter 1776 Everything is an instinctive reaction. At the moment Tang Luoyan caught Ye Ziyu, she waved her other hand directly In the quiet surroundings, the sound of instant condensation as if breathing has become particularly thick. Tang Luoyan has never been as gentle and handsome as he seems. The third generation of people can come out of the courtyard. No one can be gentle. "Ah, it hurts!" Ye Ziyu suddenly exclaimed, feeling that his wrist was about to be pinched, "let go." Tang Luoyan changed his gentle image in front of Ye Ziyu in the past, just as she was cruel when she broke things between him and ye Peiyao years ago. "Ye Ziyu, are you addicted to hitting me once? I didn''t think about it. I really couldn''t do anything to you... Right?" "Tang Luoyan, what do you want?" Ye Ziyu twisted her imprisoned wrist, but Tang Luoyan held it tighter when she moved, and she was about to cry in pain. "Say, what are you doing there so late?" Tang Luoyan''s voice was insidious. Ye Ziyu didn''t know what was wrong with Tang Luoyan, and she didn''t think of it at all. She came to the place where male and female students like to "talk about love" most in the Huanan campus. Naturally, she didn''t understand where Tang Luoyan''s anger came from. "Why do I come from there? What''s your business? Brother-in-law!" Ye Ziyu clenched his teeth and reminded Tang Luoyan of his identity, "my relationship with you has nothing to do except the names of my brother-in-law and sister-in-law." This will undoubtedly stimulate Tang Luoyan. He doesn''t know what''s wrong with him. He clearly loves Peiyao. It''s ok if he doesn''t see ye Ziyu every time. However, when he sees Ye Ziyu, he has an unspeakable feeling of being stuck in his throat. Maybe he didn''t think he didn''t like her at all. It was only because of Grandpa''s imposition that he instinctively resisted from the beginning, so he was subconsciously bored with Ye Ziyu However, it was finally found that this was not the case. But he and Peiyao have developed very well. He can''t live up to the woman he loves, but he always has a feeling that he should or shouldn''t be tired of this girl. Yes, he''s scum! Eat what you have in your mouth and look at what''s in the pot. But how many men can really do the same thing? Among the people in their circle, who doesn''t have a good life on the surface, and how many people are really clean? Thinking like this, Tang Luoyan actually looked at Ye Ziyu''s line of sight, revealing a kind of burning plunder. Also because of the heat from the subconscious in his body, he clutched Ye Ziyu''s wrist and worked harder and harder. Ye Ziyu said "ah". After all, the pain made her nervous sting and tears fell down. "Tang Luoyan, you let go, let go... It hurts..." Ye Ziyu sobbed angrily, completely ignoring that he was on campus at the moment. Gradually, someone was curious about the voice here. Without saying a word, Tang Luoyan dragged Ye Ziyu to the direction she came Xu reacted so quickly that the people who gathered together saw nothing but the backs of the two people. "What happened?" "Yes, I just heard it like a quarrel..." "It''s estimated that the little couple are making trouble?" A boy said with a smile, "it''s all in the holy land of love. It''s estimated that it''s done..." "Yes, female, just owe..." What do you owe? The boy didn''t continue to say, but just smiled obscene. Everyone is an adult. Naturally, we know that the word he didn''t say is'' Fuck ''. Suddenly, some girls scolded. "Tang Luoyan, you let go, you want to do... Huh!" Ye Ziyu was pulled too hastily by Tang Luoyan''s hasty steps. He stumbled at his feet and didn''t stabilize his body. He had been thrown down on a tree trunk by Tang Luoyan, and then his mouth was sealed by him. Humiliation, mixed with nausea, made Ye Ziyu want to vomit immediately. She struggled frantically, her teeth clenched tightly to prevent Tang Luoyan from taking a step closer. At the same time, her tears fell uncontrollably. How could he do this to her? He doesn''t want her anymore and is still with ye Peiyao. How can he treat her like this?! Ye Ziyu''s face was filled with grief and indignation. Looking at the man close at hand who wanted to invade her lips more, she just felt the tumbling in her stomach. The taste of salty and astringent fainted at the corners of his mouth. Tang Luoyan''s originally crazy mood suddenly woke up. Just like an electric shock, he suddenly let go of Ye Ziyu and looked at her in horror. "Ziyu, I..." "Sobbing..." Ye Ziyu cried, and his body slipped down the trunk, squatting on the ground and crying. Tang Luoyan looked at Ye Ziyu, who had always been strong, crying like this. His heart was like a knife. That feeling was unprecedented before. "Ziyu, I just..." Tang Luoyan squatted down and wanted to comfort ye Ziyu. However, he found that he would comfort him on weekdays. He didn''t know what to say at this moment? "Don''t touch me!" Ye Ziyu opened Tang Luoyan''s hand in tears and looked at him angrily. "Tang Luoyan, is it because my parents are dead, so you can pet me if you want to spoil me and insult me if you want to insult me? Anyway, I''m an orphan. Having a home is basically the same as having no home... You can bully me at will?" The grief and anger of the accusation made Ye Ziyu''s tears fall more and more ferocious, and such tears and words, like a needle, suddenly plunged into Tang Luoyan''s heart. "Ziyu, I was wrong just now." Tang Luoyan gritted his teeth and said, "I just..." He didn''t go on. Because of the exchange group, he will go to the school to participate in a meeting tomorrow. When eating with several people from the school, he will come together. With nothing to do, he didn''t know what was wrong with him, so he wanted to buy some snacks and other things for ye Ziyu. But the people in her dormitory said she was not there. He had to ask people to come down and bring snacks. I don''t know why, he just asked where she had gone... But he was vaguely told and left with a man. At that time, he could not tell the taste in his heart. Although I know he has no position at all now But when he saw Ye Ziyu running out from here, he completely lost his mind at that moment. "You go, you go..." Ye Ziyu cried and shouted, "I want to be alone. Get out of my sight... Get out!" Tang Luoyan opened his mouth and wanted to say something, but when he saw the disgust at the bottom of Ye Ziyu''s eyes, he got up angrily and left angrily. After Tang Luoyan left, ye Ziyu buried his whole face in his knees and began to cry The humiliation just now made her uncomfortable. She didn''t know when someone squatted down in front of her... Until she was gently held in each other''s arms. Chapter 1777 "You..." Ye Ziyu was like a frightened bird. He thought Tang Luoyan subconsciously raised his hand and waved it to the man. But when he saw Lin Nanan, ye Ziyu seemed to be relieved of his tense mood. With a "wow", he grabbed his military uniform and began to cry wantonly. Lin Nan sighed to the south, held Ye Ziyu in his arms, and patted her back with his big palm. While comforting her, there was a trace of helplessness. "Ye Ziyu, if you don''t stare at you for a moment, you can cause trouble!" Lin Nannan''s voice was full of dissatisfaction, but vaguely, he was spoiled by helplessness. "I really don''t know how your previous life came over." Ye Ziyu didn''t hear what he said, but kept crying, as if this embrace could completely release her emotions. She didn''t need to be strong, and she didn''t need to think about what happened after crying. Even if Lin Nanan might laugh at her. Lin Nan listened to Ye Ziyu''s cry and didn''t speak any more. He just hugged her tightly and let her make his military uniform full of snot and tears. The moon is full-bodied, but there is not much light in the grove because the branches are close. Lin Nan Nan accompanied Ye Ziyu in this way. Finally... Inexplicably, he hung his head slightly, and his lips gently fell on her ear. After kissing, he said in a low voice: "little fish, girls can be weak and cry... But don''t cry for a man who doesn''t love you." He looked forward with some far-reaching vision, and his voice continued with a trace of seclusion: "the man who can make you cry is not worth your tears... But the man who is worth your tears will not make you cry." Ye Ziyu didn''t speak, but she heard Lin Nanan''s words clearly. His breath, his voice, his soothing kiss... At this moment, she can only cry silently, and her heart hurts beyond description. After a while, Lin Nan suddenly chuckled, as if mocking himself and others. "Naturally, it''s always easy to say, but not easy to do!" Everyone knows the truth, but just because you know it doesn''t mean you can do it. Later, when ye Ziyu smiled at him with such sad eyes and fell into his arms... Lin Nannan thought that this might be the case in his life. Love is not negative, but negative! Looking back, it''s just a moment of youth ¡­¡­ Tang Luoyan stood far away, looking at the two people holding under the tree, and gradually clenched his hands. He had just left. After leaving, he was afraid that ye Ziyu would have an accident alone, so he turned back and came back But what did he see? A man held her and kissed her. She cried in the man''s arms. The tighter his hand was, the tighter Tang Luoyan even wanted to rush over and separate the two people for a moment But in the end, I held back. Tang Luoyan glanced coldly at Ye Ziyu, who made way from the man''s arms at the right time. He hissed coldly and turned away. He couldn''t see the man''s appearance from the angle he came over. In addition, because the light was blocked, he naturally didn''t see that the man was wearing a military uniform. But at this moment, how could he be in the mood to care what the man wears?! Ye Ziyu, leave me, obviously you don''t care Love? Your love is nothing more than that. After Tang Luoyan left, Lin glanced to the south in the direction he left. A cold feeling crossed the bottom of his eyes. Then he got up and pulled Ye Ziyu up. Ye Ziyu squatted too long, and cried. While dizzy, he felt numb in his legs and feet and almost fell down. If Lin Nan didn''t still hold her in his hand... It''s estimated that the whole person would fall to the ground. Ye Ziyu was embarrassed, but when he thought about it, he just cried in front of Lin Xiangnan, and suddenly felt that the embarrassment at this time was nothing? "Why are you here?" Ye Ziyu''s voice was still hoarse after crying. Lin Nan looked at Ye Ziyu faintly and didn''t answer. In fact, he followed all the time. Seeing her out of here, I knew that there was a large open space in front of me, which was the scope of the dormitory building, so I turned around. When she heard a sound, she turned back and she was already facing off with Tang Luoyan It was inappropriate for him to come out at that time. Of course, he was a little selfish. "I''ll take you back to the dormitory." Lin opened his mouth to the south. His voice was very weak, but he was speechless. Ye Ziyu quickly shook his head and looked at the direction he was going out. His face was a little red, "I can go back by myself..." without giving Lin Nan a chance to speak, he raised his hand and wiped it on his face and hurried out. Lin looked south at her hurried back and involuntarily hooked the corners of her mouth, revealing a shallow smile. Looking around, he raised his eyebrows slightly. Well, this is a holy place for couples to "date". It''s really inappropriate for him to go out with her. Besides, she just had friction with Tang Luoyan. I''m afraid someone saw it. Thinking of Tang Luoyan, Lin Nan frowned slightly, and involuntarily thought of Chu Zixiao. Although the third sister-in-law basically didn''t go back to Los Angeles when she returned from England, it doesn''t mean what happened there. He doesn''t know. Because of love, people will enter a dead end when they enter the dilemma constructed by themselves. But Tang Luoyan and Chu Zixiao are different. Chu Zixiao really loves his third sister-in-law, and Tang Luoyan finds out that he loves Ye Ziyu because he broke up... Or does he think ye Ziyu never wanted to die for him, and the man''s self-esteem is at stake?! Lin walked slowly to the exit of the forest to the south. Looking at Ye Ziyu''s figure rushing into the dormitory building area, his eyes were deep, revealing a touch of complexity and entanglement, but he had to look at it with helplessness. Lin Nannan went back to the exchange student dormitory. The person on duty saw him and immediately saluted him. Then he asked with a smile, "Captain, who is that girl?" "Want to know?" Lin Nan smiled faintly at the corners of his mouth, and his voice was also very soft. The man immediately grinned and nodded hurriedly, just like a chicken pecking rice. Lin Nan''s smile increased a little. When the man felt something, he suddenly hit with a fist. He hurried to dodge, but he had no time to avoid the flying leg. The man''s face changed and his figure twisted. Although he was embarrassed, he just escaped He hurried back a few steps, "Captain, I don''t want to know, can''t I?!" This man''s voice is full of grievances, but where is he a bit capable and iron blood? "Well, that''s good!" He turned and nodded to the south. The man looked at Lin Nan''s back and snorted, "it''s an adultery!" Lin Nan suddenly stopped. Just when the people were awed, he slowly turned around and seriously opened his mouth: "by the way, did I tell you..." he deliberately paused. When he saw the man''s face confused and his eyes filled with curiosity waiting for him, he continued, "... well, I came back to the army later because I felt more comfortable with men!" Lin Nannan''s words fell, and he saw that the man''s face suddenly became petrified Chapter 1778 Lin Nan was very satisfied to see his shock, smiled, turned around and strode away. Just as Lin Nan entered the building, a man suddenly came out of the dark and stood by the previous man. At night, looking at two people with the same height and the same face... If they are timid, I''m afraid the first reaction will be frightened, and I thought there was a double ghost! "Ah Yin, every time you joke about the captain, you are teased by yourself. Why don''t you have a long memory?" Ah Mao glanced sideways at ah Yin, with a look of indifference. Without saying a word, ah Yin put up his arm and directly met Ah Mao. While humming, he slightly closed his lower collar. It seemed that he was frightened by Lin Nangang''s confused words. "If the captain is not really interested in men, he must be interested in that girl." Ah Yin raised her eyebrows. "I just don''t know if it''s my sister-in-law?" Ah Mao frowned slightly, and glanced at ah Yin. They are twins. At present, their names are not their names, but code names... They are the people of the twelve Branches of the ten day stem under Lin Nan, who are scattered in the first and second groups. However, there are only eight people left in today''s twelve local branches, and the remaining four have made meritorious contributions to the task. Ah Yin ignored Ah Mao''s dislike at all. He just put his arms around his chest and said with a puzzled face: "I heard... The captain has a childhood sweetheart, isn''t it that woman?" "You can ask the captain!" A Mao suggested. Ah Yin nodded, then shook his head and said seriously, "when I practice again, I can beat the captain." "..." Ah Mao sneered and said with undisguised sarcasm, "it''s estimated that it''s impossible in this life." A Yin was a little discouraged and wanted to refute, but she found that she was powerless. Lin Nan personally secretly trained shitiangan and 12dizhi. He spent three months secretly selecting people from various troops, trained for a year, and then selected them from various troops to work under him The biggest wish of shitiangan and 12dizhi in their life is to surpass the blue and surpass the blue. The back waves of the Yangtze River push the front waves and throw the front waves down on the beach. It can be imagined that it is beautiful Everyone who tried to bring down the front wave was beaten into a pig''s head by the front wave. People can''t help but look up to the sky and sigh: Hey, shit, when can we turn over and sing the serfs?! "You say, can we beat up the captain together?" Ah Yin asked whimsically. Mao said thoughtfully, "why don''t you talk about it later?" He looked at ah Yin, "seriously, if I don''t beat up the captain, I''ll probably regret it all my life!" A Yin nodded approvingly. ¡­¡­ Lin Nan went back to the dormitory. After pulling the curtains, he began to take off his clothes and plan to take a bath. When the clothes recede, the strong posture, wheat skin and tight muscles are definitely the type that makes girls scream Of course, girls may scream from fright. Lin Nan''s body, large and small scars, under the soft light, was a little scary. There are bullet marks and cold weapons. After taking a bath, Lin Nan wiped his head with a towel while picking up his mobile phone. Seeing that there was a missed call, he dialed back, "chief, what''s up so late?" Lang Xiaolin first asked about the exchange group, and then said in a dignified voice, "I just came back from the meeting. I have the intention to let Xi Hongwen come to our army as the head of the fourth special regiment." The internal structure of group a army is very complex, which is not as good as those public regiments and brigades known to the outside world. Many of the establishment are not known to outsiders... And here is also the most mysterious existence for both inside and outside. Naturally, there are so many special systems here that it will surprise the outside world. Lin smiled at the corner of his mouth, threw away the towel and said coldly, "why, this is a hand to insert into me?" Lang Xiaolin was silent. He knew that Lin was unhappy in the south. It was still in this period, "I fought for it and refuted it at the last." "So now you just let me have a psychological preparation and take preventive shots?" Lin narrowed his eyes to the south. "I''m afraid old ma is about to change his job. I''m not interested in his position. Is the Xi family going to be a springboard from here?!" "South!" Lang Xiaolin frowned in a cold voice, "can you say that?" He sighed deeply, "your uncle seems to have approved it, too." Lin Nan snorted coldly, "OK, I know..." he didn''t give Lang Xiaolin a chance to speak, so he hung up the phone directly. Lin Nan took the cigarette and lit it. His eyes took a deep breath, thinking about the real purpose of Xi Hongwen in this period. After all There are many regiments of the a group army, but Xi Hongwen came to be inextricably linked with him. Lin Nan''s dormitory is filled with a treacherous atmosphere. At the moment, ye Ziyu''s dormitory, which has just been concerned about why her eyes are red and swollen, is full of "tension" under ambiguity! "Come on, how did you get to know that soldier brother?" Wang Xiaoqin asked. "Ye Ziyu, if you don''t tell the truth, I''m sorry that I didn''t go to romance with someone in my family today. I''m waiting for you to come back..." Song Lanlan hummed. Zhou Mo ran smiled. Although she didn''t speak, it was obvious that she was also waiting for ye Ziyu to confess honestly. "If I said I hit his car and met him when I touched porcelain..." Ye Ziyu looked innocent. "Do you believe it?" The crowd shook their heads. "But this is the truth!" Ye Ziyu talked about the two car crashes before and after, ignoring others. "Ye Ziyu, you are such a scheming bitch." Song Lanlan immediately reached out and "pinched" Ye Ziyu''s face, gritted her teeth and said, "you should use such a message to attract brother Bing''s attention..." "I didn''t know who the owner was at first... Ah... Spare my life!" "Spare your life?" Song Lanlan said with a look of envy and jealousy, "if you want to spare your life, you can ask brother Bing to invite the people in our dormitory to dinner!" "..." Ye Ziyu twitched at the corners of his mouth and said with a principled and serious face, "then you''d better strangle me!" As ye Ziyu''s words fell, suddenly, several girls in the dormitory got together. When they lay in bed, it was time to turn off the lights. Ye Ziyu couldn''t sleep in bed without the fun of the other three people in the dormitory. Now, after everyone fell asleep and breathed evenly, her mind was in a mess. Tang Luoyan and Lin Nannan kept changing in their minds, as if their hands were going to tear her apart. She clearly didn''t put down Tang Luoyan completely, but his touch made her sick and sick. Mingming and Lin Nan are very strange, but they are not disgusted with his kiss... They will look forward to it. Ye Ziyu frowned slightly. Tang Luoyan was disgusted because of his relationship with ye Peiyao. But what the hell is Lin Nanan looking forward to? Chapter 1779 "Leaves?" Suddenly a voice came softly. Ye Ziyu looked sideways. "Hmm? Why haven''t you slept yet?" "Didn''t you sleep?" Zhou Mo ran chuckled and said anxiously, "I came back then and heard that Tang Luoyan took you..." Zhou Mo ran didn''t continue to say where to take it. Ye Ziyu was silent and didn''t know how to answer. At that time, when everyone asked why she was crying, she just said casually. She was moved by listening to the exchange student talk about some things. Yes, she lied. On the one hand, I don''t want everyone to worry. On the other hand, Tang Luoyan''s affair really makes her feel sick. "Are you okay?" Zhou Mo ran asked anxiously. "Mo ran, I''m sorry..." Ye Ziyu said softly, "I just don''t want you to worry." Zhou Mo ran smiled, "are you stupid? What''s there to apologize for? It''s me, and I don''t want to mention him." After a pause, she asked again, "but what''s the matter with Lin Nan? At that time, he didn''t talk like you said he only met and gave you a nickname." As she spoke, her smile deepened a little. Thinking of Lin Nannan kissing her and the scene of two people clinging to their bodies in such an environment tonight, ye Ziyu blushed and subconsciously said, "the problem is that he and I are not even friends. Who knows why he calls me little fish!" "I guess it''s the love affair you knocked out. I don''t necessarily like you." Zhou Mo ran joked, "if you really like you, you can consider... Feeling, although not as gentle as Tang Luoyan, it''s not bad." "Do you think too far..." Ye Ziyu couldn''t laugh or cry, "Oh, forget it, go to bed!" "Well, good!" Zhou Mo ran smiled and said good night. They stopped talking and closed their eyes. Just as they closed their eyes, a man slowly opened his eyes ¡­¡­ The next day, the early morning sunshine was very good, as if there was finally the breath of spring. Because of the arrival of the exchange group, the whole foreign language department is the most lively. Some small activities will be participated by people of different grades in the foreign language department. In the afternoon, there was a large-scale exchange meeting. The Ministry of foreign affairs sent Tang Luoyan. The foreign language department temporarily selected 500 people to participate in the exchange meeting, including Ye Ziyu. "Ziyu, please prepare for this topic. In the afternoon, you and the people of the fifth detachment..." Mr. Meng pushed his glasses on his face and said in a voice of dignity. "OK." Ye Ziyu answered and couldn''t help looking at teacher Meng. After last night, it was really difficult for her to treat the teacher as a serious person on weekdays. Teacher Meng felt Ye Ziyu''s look, and his eyes turned sideways. He was so frightened that ye Ziyu hurriedly lowered his eyes, and listened to her ask, "what else don''t you understand?" "No!" Ye Ziyu shook her head hurriedly and her heart beat fiercely. She was afraid that she would be punished for knowing the secret of teacher Meng and the headmaster? "Yes." Teacher Meng answered and then explained to others. Just as ye Ziyu breathed out, Tang Luoyan came over "Zi Yu..." "Director Tang," Ye Ziyu said, interrupting Tang Luoyan''s words with a cold face, "I have to prepare relevant topics. I won''t bother you." The words fell, and she didn''t give him a chance to speak. She had turned around. At the moment, people attending the exchange meeting are busy with their own affairs. Although no one may pay attention to them, Tang Luoyan naturally doesn''t dare to do anything special. "Ziyu, let''s talk in the evening!" Tang Luoyan spoke and stopped her footsteps with the voice Ye Ziyu could hear. "Yesterday I lost my mind. I apologize. I think we should have a good talk. Maybe... I really want to face up to the relationship between us in the future." Ye Ziyu knew he should go and shouldn''t listen to him. But sometimes people are very cheap. They clearly know what they want to do and what they should do, but they just... Can''t help themselves. Ha ha, funny first love! Feeling Ye Ziyu''s inner looseness, Tang Luoyan then said, "I''m still waiting for you in the milk tea shop you like..." he paused, "wait until you come." Ye Ziyu didn''t say anything. He touched his lower lip and didn''t look back at the man behind him. He took a deep breath and walked away. Tang Luoyan looked at Ye Ziyu''s back, and his eyes flashed a touch of self mockery, with a trace of firmness. When he went back last night, he looked at himself in the mirror after taking a bath and felt strange It shouldn''t be him! He can''t be with Pei Yao when he is with Ziyu, let alone leave what he thinks of Ziyu when he is with Pei Yao! Tang Luoyan sighed darkly. Looking at Ye Ziyu''s back, he felt as if he had added something to his heart? Suddenly Tang Luoyan felt a look like nothing, frowned slightly, looked at it, and smiled at Shanglin to the south. The eyebrows tightened again. Tang Luoyan nodded slightly to the south of Lin. The relationship between the Tang family and the Lin family is good, but they don''t have much intersection. Recently, I''ve always heard my sister mention this person. "Captain, chief Lin is calling." Li Hao, come here with your cell phone. Lin Nan took back his sight, glanced at the caller and walked aside to pick up, "uncle." "Did Lao Lang tell you?" Lin Bojin asked. Lin Nan was silent, "yes." "Well, what do you think?" Lin Bojin took the tea pot and twisted the tea into the cup. "I have to obey orders anyway, don''t I? As you said, it''s the bounden duty of soldiers." Lin Nan''s voice was casual, but anyone could hear his dissatisfaction. Lin Bojin sighed, "don''t stab me in the south, do you understand?" Lin Nan didn''t speak. Xi Hongwen can come to the a group army, but he doesn''t want his hand to reach out to the special brigade. Everyone who knows him knows this idea. If he doesn''t want to, there''s always a way to keep Xi Hongwen''s hand out of his place "Give me a reason to ignore it." Lin Nan''s voice was always faint. Although he is in awe of this uncle, it does not mean that he will compromise on matters affecting his interests and principles. Lin Bojin didn''t speak immediately. After a while, he slowly opened his mouth: "he took over the matter of Ye Xuan." Lin Nan immediately changed his face, but it was only for a moment that he recovered his calm. He laughed coldly. That smile was full of ridicule. When Lin Bojin heard this, he sighed secretly. Just when he wanted to say something, he was interrupted by Lin Nannan, "uncle, it''s public and private. That''s it... But what I want to say is that Lin Nannan doesn''t want to be played like this!" Then he hung up directly. Chapter 1780 "Li Hao!" Lin Nan hung up the phone and shouted. Li Hao hurried over, "Captain?" "I''ll go out and get some air," Lin Nan said coldly. "You''ll go to the canteen with the exchange group later." "Yes!" Lin Nan said nothing more and stepped outside the auditorium. Li Hao looked at Lin Nan''s strong back, sighed and whispered, "I don''t know whether it''s a business or a private matter!" Lin went out of the auditorium to the south, found a quiet place, took out a cigarette and lit it, and took a breath in a little irritable. Uncle, this call is for the public and private. Ye Xuan''s business is always a heart disease above. No matter true or false, now this person is Thinking of this, Lin Nan closed his eyes and obviously flashed a touch of irritability on his face. When he opened it again, he took another puff of smoke, and a thick breath came out of his nose. Then he put out the smoke, slightly tilted his head, and looked at the garbage can not far away... With a flick of his finger, the cigarette butt fell into the garbage can impartially. Converging his irritable breath, Lin walked slowly to the South I don''t know whether it was really fate or what. He unexpectedly met Ye Ziyu again. Ye Ziyu didn''t expect to meet Lin Nanan, who should be protected by his entourage. He was stunned at first. Then he thought of what happened last night and the kiss he couldn''t think of at night. As soon as he got out of his mind, he didn''t say anything, so he turned and ran away! "Ye Ziyu, what are you running for? Did you go to hell?" Lin Nannan is dissatisfied. Although he is not as handsome as his third brother, nor does he have the arrogance of boss long... At least he is also a grass with red roots in the army. What is this woman''s attitude? "Because you are more terrible than ghosts." Ye Ziyu said even more mentally. With that, she was stunned and forgot to run. She secretly grinned at her belly, and then looked back and came over. Lin Nan, with a gloomy face, said, "it''s over!"! "I''m more terrible than ghosts... Huh?" Lin Nan bullied Ye Ziyu, and his whole body was full of ruffian Qi and danger belonging to soldiers alone. It was a feeling that was obviously right, but was infected with evil. "Ha ha," said Ye Ziyu, who immediately changed his smiling face and knew current affairs very well, "no, no, no, I think it would be terrible if your glorious image of a soldier was destroyed by me in broad daylight!" "Oh, that''s you can destroy my image at night..." after Lin Nan chewed this sentence, the corner of his mouth smiled vaguely, and even the sight of Ye Ziyu was meaningful. Ye Ziyu felt that he must have thought too much. This time, he must not think about Lin Nannan again. But... At the moment, this man doesn''t look like a soldier. He''s just a man. Lin Nanan was much taller than ye Ziyu. He leaned over slightly and immediately put a lot of pressure on her. Ye Ziyu swallowed it secretly, pulled away slightly, and pulled some ugly smile from the corners of his mouth. "Ha ha", he said, trying not to think about what he said last night: "you, you think too much... I will not destroy your image at any time." "Think too much?" Lin Nan frowned slightly, "but last night in that forest..." Ye Ziyu only wanted to have a thunder to knock her unconscious. "Lin Nan, you''ve had enough!" Ye Ziyu stared angrily at Lin Nan, blushing and gnashing his teeth, as if he were going to eat him alive. Looking at her like this, Lin Nan laughed, raised his hand and bounced on her forehead. Ye Ziyu''s "ah" was so painful that tears were about to fall. "Silly!" Lin Nan looked at her angrily covering her forehead and said with a smile, "I mean, where did you think of when you were crying?" "..." Ye Ziyu pulled from the corner of his mouth, "kiss, I have no image, not you!" The implication is that you have no image. That''s definitely when they''re eavesdropping. "Well, I''m smart this time." Lin Nan praised, "not fooled." Ye Ziyu immediately shook his body, "that''s..." Looking at the sadness that ye Ziyu had just caught in his eyes, which was replaced by the sound of a smile, Lin hooked up at the corner of his mouth and said faintly, "is there anything in the evening?" "Why?" Ye Ziyu asked casually because he was happy. "Well, it''s all right. Just ask." "..." Ye Ziyu grinned because he bared his teeth, hummed something, and said with a curl, "I have to get something to communicate. I''ll go first." Lin nodded to the south. Just as ye Ziyu was about to pass him, he suddenly thought of something and grabbed her wrist. Ye Ziyu tilted his head and looked at him curiously, "what''s the matter?" "Why don''t you have a long memory?" Lin Nan frowned slightly, "aren''t you afraid of meeting anything if you take a shortcut?" There was a faint reproach in his tone. Ye Ziyu suddenly remembered something, and his face was slightly embarrassed. When Lin Nan released her wrist, his face was stained with crimson, and turned to the main road. Lin Nan looked at her figure, as if helpless and funny, gently shook his head, turned and walked towards the auditorium But when the talent turned around, he saw Tang Luoyan standing not far away and looking at them. Lin Nanan is very sensitive to the surrounding environment on weekdays because of his special identity. But just talking to Ye Ziyu, I didn''t find when Tang Luoyan stood there and looked at him. Walking forward, Lin Nannan listened to Tang Luoyan''s voice and asked calmly, "Nanshao and Ziyu are very familiar?" "Ziyu?" Lin Qingyi fell to the south, as if he were surprised. Tang Luoyan and ye Ziyu were familiar with each other. Tang Luoyan frowned slightly. Before he could speak, Lin smiled to the South and seemed to react, "Oh, yes... You are with Peiyao, and Ziyu is your sister-in-law." In a word, choking is not worth your life. "..." Tang Luoyan was inadvertently stabbed in the heart by Lin Nannan, feeling a little uncomfortable, "yes, Ziyu is Peiyao''s sister." After a slight pause, he asked casually without revealing too much emotion, "as far as I know... Nanshao should not have an intersection with Ziyu?" "It''s all from the same circle. I''ve seen it more or less." Lin Nanan replied that there was no information at all. He was waiting for Tang Luoyan to say. "Because... Ye Xuan?" Tang Luoyan asked. Lin smiled to the South and looked at Tang Luoyan with his eyes. There was not much emotion on the surface, but it was cold in the depths. "So you care about me and her so much... Is it because of Peiyao or Tang Lu?" Tang Luoyan frowned slightly. Unexpectedly, Lin Nannan would mention Tang Lu, "Nanshao, your identity, Ziyu will be very hard, so... If Nanshao is just interested for a while, it''s better to let go in the face of Ye Xuan." "What can I do?" Lin Nannan seemed a little distressed, "I seem... I can''t let go!" Tang Luoyan immediately changed his face and looked sharply at Lin Nanan to see if his words were true or false? "What does Nanshao mean?" Chapter 1781 Lin Nan smiled. "It means that I''m interested in Ye Ziyu, and she''s quite like me..." he paused. He ignored Tang Luoyan''s changed face and continued, "also, I''m a prick, not just in the army!" Tang Luoyan slightly clenched his hand when he meant something. Unexpectedly, he had an impulse to tell Lin Nannan that ye Ziyu liked him! "The woman I want can''t be controlled by my family..." Lin Nan didn''t seem to see the overflow look from Tang Luoyan''s eyes, but said slowly, "just like what kind of road I choose, my family can''t control, can''t control..." After that, Lin Nannan took back his confrontation with Tang Luoyan, raised his step and passed him. Eating my sister and thinking of my sister Oh! Lin Nan sneered to the south, and his eyes were completely disdained. The people he met, from the Dragon boss to the second brother Li Yunze, and then to the third brother Gu Beichen... Even if he can''t see clearly the feelings sometimes, who doesn''t like who, will never fool around with other women? Which position did they take out, not at home, or even in the world? Can''t you play with women or make women flock to them? However, everyone has an awe of love and doesn''t play, just because he wants to give his heart to the person who wants to give it He just said that to Tang Luoyan on purpose. If he didn''t want a girl, there wouldn''t be an excellent man. Every girl should be loved by her men, not constantly hurt because the man she loves doesn''t love her. Thinking of this, Lin Nan slightly stagnated, and there was an indescribable emotion in his heart. In the end Some words, want and do, different! Lin thought about this to the south, and his eyes flashed a touch of self mockery under sadness. Such self mockery, which can''t be dispersed for a long time, seems to take root and sprout slowly in his heart, and then his muscles and veins tear his nerves and remind him all the time... Some things are the sorrow of sacrificing the ego for the greater self. I spent the afternoon in the exchange meeting. Lin Nanan and others stood as loose as a pine in front of the public and did not wipe a little ash on the image of soldiers. "Captain," Li Hao said, standing behind Lin Nannan. The two of them were accompanying him and were not worth their posts. "Director Tang is young. No wonder he can be the director. I''m dizzy." "Yo, can you still understand?" Lin Nan smiled at the corner of his mouth and his eyes fell on Tang Luoyan who was speaking. Li Hao grinned and showed his big white teeth. "He''s been talking for more than half an hour. Just like you scold us every time, I guess those people below will faint after listening to it for ten or twenty minutes." Lin glanced sideways at Li Hao. He knew that the boy was "pointing at the mulberry and scolding the locust". He didn''t bother to pay attention to him, but his sight deviated slightly and fell on Ye Ziyu. Ye Ziyu is a little nervous at the moment. She will speak later. She looked at Tang Luoyan and felt a little mixed. It''s ridiculous that she can have the current ability professionally. In addition to her own efforts, it''s Tang Luoyan''s credit Thinking of this, ye Ziyu looked at Tang Luoyan with a little sadness he didn''t know. No matter what Tang Luoyan thought of her, she really paid for him. Although they didn''t act too close, Tang Luoyan''s appearance filled a lot of loneliness for her. She once thought that it would be a lifetime, suddenly found that everything is a bubble, broken when it was... Scratch heart to scratch lung uncomfortable. Lin Nan deviated slightly along Ye Ziyu''s line of sight and landed on Tang Luoyan. At the right moment, Tang Luoyan''s voice slightly stagnated, and his sight was just opposite Ye Ziyu. I didn''t know whether it was true that he needed to pause or because he was distracted for a moment when he saw her looking at him. Lin twisted his eyebrows to the south, and there was an inexplicable overflow of anger in his heart. Ye Ziyu, that''s all you can do. He hummed coldly. Lin Nan and Li Hao gave a sign in their eyes. They didn''t say anything and turned out of the auditorium. "Now, let''s welcome junior Ye Ziyu..." just as Lin Nanfang was about to step out of the auditorium, teacher Meng''s voice came, "Ye was personally taught by director Tang..." Lin suddenly stopped to the south. At the right time, he also heard the voice of many people booing in the auditorium, filled with surprise. Tang Luoyan frowned slightly, and ye Ziyu also clenched his hand. Looking at teacher Meng, he scolded: I have nothing to do with Tang Luoyan. If your news lags behind, you will lag behind. If you have an affair with the headmaster, why make fun of me in public and add light to your face?! Tang Luoyan was not as angry as ye Ziyu, but he was so happy. And such happiness, only because he and ye Ziyu can still have a little connection Some people in the school know ye Ziyu and Tang Luoyan have a good relationship, and some don''t know... Just, except for the people in her dormitory, they don''t know that they were lovers before. "Everyone has seen Director Tang''s ability. Now let''s welcome Mr. Ye." Meng said with a smile. At the right moment, ahad took the lead in clapping and looked at Ye Ziyu with his eyes lit up. Lin turned his eyebrows to the south, looked at Tang Luoyan, looked at ehad, and finally his eyes fell on Ye Ziyu who pulled the microphone in front of him... Inexplicably, he felt that "everyone in the world is robbing women with Lao Tze" at this moment. However, ye Ziyu is not his woman! Lin Nanan has been standing at the door looking at Ye Ziyu. Even though the girl is far away, he still feels angry when teacher Meng mentioned her relationship with Tang Luoyan. Well, I still have a heart! Lin Nan smiled faintly at the corners of his mouth. He simply didn''t go out. He stood there and watched Ye Ziyu talk about what he had prepared. Gradually, he deepened his eyes "South to south, will you always love me?" "Yes!" "But what if I don''t love you?" Su Xiaoxiao ''hee hee'' smiled, not joking, "after all, we grew up together and are too familiar." "It''s all right, I''ll make you more familiar. After you leave me, you won''t be used to the whole world..." Lin Nan, who is also full of youth, smiles as brightly as the sun. Su Xiaoxiao giggled, "all right, now love is not love. When your mind is fixed, that''s love!" "Su Xiaoxiao, let''s wait and you will know whether my love for you is the impulse of adolescence or real love." Lin said to the south, gritting his teeth. Su Xiaoxiao suddenly smiled, her eyes as pure as water, "Lin Nanan, it''s a habit to be together all the time. One day, I left... Or when I left for a long time, I will eventually be replaced by a girl! Being replaced will be very sad, so I don''t want to be loved by you..." Lin Nan looked at Ye Ziyu, his eyes gradually became far-reaching, and Su Xiaoxiao''s words echoed in his mind, suddenly overflowing with a chill. Chapter 1782 Lin Nan coldly withdrew his sight and turned around, leaving Ye Ziyu''s confident voice behind He needs to keep calm. Although some things are "true", he can''t treat them as true! Standing outside the auditorium, I let the afternoon sun cover me... Until a thin layer of sweat overflowed on my forehead. Lin Nanan ignored the sight of passers-by. For such sight, he has long been used to it and learned to ignore it. The mobile phone vibrated in his pocket at the right time. Lin took it out to the south. Seeing that the number was hidden, he frowned slightly and picked it up He didn''t speak, neither did the other. Both of them were waiting for the other to speak first. But obviously, neither of them has this plan. After about a minute, the person opposite opened his mouth: "south, I''m back..." Lin suddenly narrowed his eyes to the south, gritted his teeth and said, "you''re crazy!" "I''m not crazy," the voice of the person opposite was a little dull. "This time, maybe it''s my last time. I want to come back to see Yicheng and my parents. I also want to see..." he didn''t continue to say, as if he was holding back something?! Lin looked South and fell in front, but his ears listened to whether there was anyone around him within the range of his voice. "I can''t intervene in your business. Xi Hongwen has taken over." "Oh." The man hissed coldly, "I guessed." Lin Nan frowned slightly. "What are you going to do now?" "I don''t want to say how to do it. You are the person I attach importance to, and I don''t want to implicate you..." Ye Xuan smiled astringently, "although I know that you are not afraid of being implicated by me." Lin Nan didn''t speak, but his sight became deeper and deeper. "I can only do the next thing alone, and I know the final result." Ye Xuan said, with an indescribable complexity in his voice. After a while, he slowly opened his mouth, "to the south, my parents are just small businessmen. I don''t worry... Peiyao is now related to the boy of the Tang family..." He paused as if he was holding back some emotion. After biting his teeth, he said, "I''m just worried about Ziyu now." "You don''t care about your sister at all," Lin sniffed to the south. "It''s not pro. You care very much." Ye Xuan didn''t seem to care about Lin Nannan''s sneer, but slowly opened his mouth: "Lin Nannan, still a brother, still remembering the love we fought side by side before..." he gritted his teeth, "remember what you promised me and help me take good care of Ziyu!" "Oh," said Lin nanleng, "what if I can''t take good care of it?" Ye Xuan was silent at first, and then said coldly, "then I''ll beat..." "Doodle doodle..." Ye Xuan''s words haven''t finished yet. The phone is suddenly hung up. Lin Nan frowned slightly, knowing that something must have happened to Ye Xuan. Hand, slightly clenched. Lin Nan has a faint anger at the bottom of his eyes... Ye Xuan doesn''t know how dangerous it is for him to come back to Yicheng now? ¡­¡­ Ye''s business. Ye Peiyao walked proudly to the general manager''s office in stiletto heels "Miss Ye." The secretary just came out of the office and said hello with a smile. Ye Peiyao nodded slightly, knocked on the door and went in. "Dad!" Ye Quande raised his eyes and looked at ye Peiyao. Then he continued to droop his eyes and sign the document, "how come here now?" "Come and have a look when you pass by." "Have you just seen Ye Yao''s mother sitting there?" Ye Quande put down the signing pen, took the water cup and drank, "your mother went to the government to check the verification form," paused, "what do you want to do with your mother?" Ye Peiyao smiled and nodded. Seeing her father waiting for her to say, she said with a deepening smile: "Luoyan and I are going to have a wedding in late spring and early summer..." As soon as ye Quande heard this, he frowned slightly, "will it be too hasty?" "Dad," ye Peiyao was slightly dissatisfied, "Luo Yan and I have been together for several months. We also feel very suitable for each other, so we want to make a decision." Ye Quande was silent, as if thinking about something? After a long time, he said anxiously: "although it is said that Ziyu proposed to break up with Luoyan, you were together... However, it is only a few months, you and Luoyan are about to get married, after all..." "Dad is worried that Ziyu is unhappy?" Ye Peiyao immediately lost her face. "Dad, sometimes I really doubt that Ziyu is your daughter and I am the one who adopted!" "What nonsense?" Ye Quande was also cold. "It''s because Ziyu was adopted that I want to be better to her..." when he said this, he sighed, "but Ziyu knows that he is not his own, and everything is very independent. Now he is a junior, and he works part-time everywhere. It makes me feel that we can''t keep her in the Ye family." Ye Peiyao snorted coldly, endured it, and continued to ask, "Dad, my wedding with Luoyan..." Ye Quande looked at his daughter. Although he had some ideas in his heart, he still pressed down. "You and Luoyan can see for yourself. If you think time is OK, you can discuss it with your mother." "Good!" When ye Peiyao saw that ye Quande agreed, she got up with a smile. "But..." Ye Peiyao suddenly frowned and listened to ye Quande sighing: "Ziyu is dependent on others, and his heart will be sensitive. Don''t be radical about you and Luoyan, you know?" Ye Peiyao snorted coldly, but said with a smile on her face, "Dad, I know." Paused, "Ziyu is small, I will let you..." Ye Quande nodded and looked pleased. "Dad, I''ll go first." "Yes." Ye Peiyao turned away with a smile, but when she closed the office door, the smile on her face gradually converged and replaced by forbearing anger. An adoptive person, why should she let everything go from small to large?! Sitting in the car, ye Peiyao hissed coldly, took the time and looked at the time. Seeing that it was almost six o''clock, she immediately called Tang Luoyan. "Huh?" Tang Luoyan''s voice came through the noise. "Is the meeting over?" "Yes." Tang Luoyan answered, "it''s just over." Ye Peiyao smiled and asked, "I''ll pick you up?" "No," Tang Luoyan said in a hurry. Maybe he realized it and hurriedly explained, "I''ll have dinner with the school people later." "All right!" Ye Peiyao endured a moment of discomfort in her heart and asked thoughtfully, "when the dinner is over, I''ll pick you up. You have to drink at night. It''s hard to drive." "No, Xiao Feng is here." Xiao Feng is Tang Luoyan''s assistant. He doesn''t eat with school people at night. Naturally, he can''t let ye Peiyao come to pick him up. "All right." Ye Peiyao didn''t seem to care, "by the way, I told my father about my wedding with you, and my father agreed." As soon as Tang Luoyan heard this, he was slightly silent, "let''s meet and say this." "OK." Ye Peiyao answered with a smile and hung up after two more words. Only then did the phone hang up, and the original smile on her face gradually converged. After thinking about it, ye Peiyao''s eyes flashed gloomily and dialed Ye Ziyu''s phone again Chapter 1783 Ye Ziyu had just put the materials and other things back into the dormitory, changed his clothes and was ready to go out, when he received a call from ye Peiyao. I wanted to hang up directly. Unfortunately, she picked it up at last. "Come back at the weekend?" Ye Peiyao said with a faint domineering voice. "I''m not free." Ye Ziyu''s voice is neither hot nor cold. After all, in the face of his father, some things have to be passable, "I''ll say it from my father." Ye Peiyao sneered coldly, "Ziyu, no matter what, you are still the Ye family..." paused, "when the Ye family has something to do, you still have to be there." Ye Ziyu frowned, "what''s up?" Ye Peiyao picked her eyebrows and smiled, "don''t you know when you come back at the weekend?" After a slight meal, she continued without waiting for ye Ziyu to speak, "of course, if you think you are no longer a member of the Ye family, then I don''t care." Ye Ziyu secretly scolded ye Peiyao several times. She clearly knew that she couldn''t refuse to say so. In Ye''s family, her mother is neither good nor bad to her, but her father and brother are really very good to her. Although my brother has gone abroad to study and my father is busy with the company... It''s understandable that the two men of the Ye family are kind to her and she can''t ignore it. "OK." Ye Ziyu answered. "See you that weekend." Ye Peiyao smiled and hung up. Ye Ziyu listened to the "toot beep" from inside, and immediately make complaints about his teeth, "Ye Peiyao, I will see you laugh, laugh and die..." "Leaf, what are you muttering at the door?" Song Lanlan came over in her sportswear with sweat on her face. "Nothing," Ye Ziyu smiled and looked at her. "Just played with someone in your family?!" Yes, yes. "Yes, he was KO by me again!" Song LAN raised her eyebrows with pride on her face. Ye Ziyu smiled. "Tell me about you. Every time he asks you, you can take it seriously. Are you ashamed?" "This is a man''s favorite everyday..." Song Lanlan hooked Ye Ziyu''s chin and said with a small and proud smile, "Xiao Ye, who can''t point back to you, makes you more hypocritical than me!" Ye Ziyu felt lost, but he just held it down for a moment. "Wait until the hypocritical person who spoiled me appears!" "I went to take a bath and change my clothes first... Hey, why are you going?" Song LAN suddenly reacted. "I have an appointment for dinner." "The cat?" "Huh?" Ye Ziyu didn''t realize it. Song LAN smiled, "Lin Nan!" "..." Ye Ziyu yanked at the corner of his mouth, "don''t make fun of me and him, or people will think what''s wrong with me!" Then she urged song Lanlan to take a bath and change clothes. She went downstairs and went to the milk tea shop outside the campus. ¡­¡­ "Captain, captain..." Li Hao suddenly rubbed against Lin Nan and slightly picked his chin, "isn''t that ye Ziyu?!" Lin Nanzheng arranged the night duty with the team members. Listening to Li Hao''s voice, he glanced and saw that ye Ziyu''s steps showed a trace of floating bitterness and walked in the direction of the school gate in previous years With a slight frown, Lin Nan immediately took back his sight and continued to command indifferently. Li Hao thought the captain would have something to say. Seeing that there were no waves at all, he touched his nose and stepped aside. At the right time, ah Yin rubbed to his side, "did you just tell the captain about the woman?" He looked and motioned to Ye Ziyu. "You know?" Li Hao was a little surprised. A Yin told Lin Nannan about taking Ye Ziyu to see ehad last night, and Li Hao immediately pondered However, on second thought, there is still an unknown tombstone in the captain''s heart. It''s impossible to transfer love so soon?! Ah Yin''s noisy voice was still in his ear. Li Hao suddenly regained his mind and said, "you''re so curious about the captain''s private life, why don''t you ask?" Then he said, "learn from Ah Mao, you twins. I haven''t seen his gossip!" "..." ah Yin was stunned. When Li Hao went to one side, he spit out a word, "shit!" "Director Tang!" Lin Nan was giving orders. Yu Guang crossed over and saw Tang Luoyan coming out of the building, so he shouted. Tang Luoyan frowned slightly. Because of the intersection in the morning, instinctively, he didn''t want to say anything to Lin xiangnando?! Colin has shouted to the south. As a member of the system serving exchange students, he doesn''t have a good face. How to be direct "Ah Xu is responsible for the rest. Let''s break up!" Lin Nan''s voice was indifferent. He looked across ah Xu and saw that he was in good health. He didn''t say anything more and went to Tang Luoyan. "What''s the matter with Nan?" Tang Luoyan looked at Lin Nannan and asked faintly. "There''s no plan for the school tonight," Lin Nan said calmly, with a faint smile in his mouth. "Let''s have dinner later?" Paused, "just in time, big brother comes." "Minister Lin Qin?" Tang Luoyan wondered. Lin Nan smiled. "Elder brother has left the Ministry of foreign affairs for many years. Calling him Lin is expected to be better." Tang Luoyan smiled. "It''s just a title. Besides, people in the Ministry of foreign affairs are still used to calling him minister." He paused. "It''s a pity. I have an appointment tonight..." he seemed to have some regrets. "When I went to the Ministry of foreign affairs, Minister Lin had left. Otherwise, I could learn something." "That''s a pity..." Lin smiled a little deeper at the corner of his mouth. "Then don''t disturb Director Tang." "Tell minister Lin that we have a chance to get together!" "Good!" Lin nodded to the south, motioned with Tang Luoyan, looked at his back as he left, and gradually the smile at the corners of his mouth converged. Brother didn''t come. He just said that. He was just testing Tang Luoyan. Sure enough "Captain, late..." "I have something else to do. You should cooperate with ah Xu to watch the things here." Lin Nan interrupted Li Hao. Li Hao was stunned and immediately answered, "yes!" Lin turned to the South and looked at Tang Luoyan again. Then he went to the dormitory temporarily arranged by the school, changed his casual clothes and left the school. ¡­¡­ Milk tea shop. The setting sun projected in from the glass window and fell on Ye Ziyu. It was slightly plated into a halo. She wore her hair, and her neat bangs hung slightly under her head, slightly covering her eyes. Ye Ziyu looked at something in the graffiti book in the store. Suddenly, his sight fell somewhere and smiled at himself I saw it written: ye Luoyan, this heart is like a rock! "Childish, ridiculous!" Ye Ziyu looked at the words he had written, laughed at himself, "ha ha", took the pen, painted out this sentence, and then wrote a line of words at the bottom At the right moment, Tang Luoyan came in and just saw Ye Ziyu writing something in the graffiti book. He didn''t speak. He quietly walked over and his eyes fell on it... Just for a moment, his face was a little ugly when he saw her writing! Chapter 1784 Ye Ziyu wrote: the last time I shed tears for him, just because I want to be a stranger from now on! Tang Luoyan''s heart suddenly cramped. The sense of suffocation that he couldn''t explain swept his nerves again and made him unprepared. Ye Ziyu frowned slightly and looked sideways... Raised her eyes and looked up at Tang Luoyan''s eyes, which were so complex that she couldn''t see clearly. Subconsciously, ye Ziyu couldn''t think and closed the book. "When did you come?" Ye Ziyu asked in a frozen voice. Tang Luoyan sat down opposite Ye Ziyu, glanced at the book she put on the shelf and said as if she didn''t see anything: "when I just came in, I ordered you milk tea, chicken wings and French fries." "Yes." Ye Ziyu answered softly, paused and asked, "what do you want to say?" Two people are in a small elegant room. Although they can''t be completely isolated from the outside, there is still a private space on the visual line. "Ziyu..." Tang Luoyan shouted and paused before asking, "what''s the relationship between you and Lin Nannan?" Ye Ziyu frowned slightly. "Is that what you asked me to come?" "No, just a casual question." Tang Luoyan was silent. At the right time, the waiter brought in milk tea and other things. Tang Luoyan only ordered himself a cup of coffee, as always. Ye Ziyu felt that she was really not sensible in the past. Thinking that Tang Luoyan spoiled her, she liked to come here. Although she loved him and only drank a cup of coffee with him, she felt that she was her boyfriend, and there was nothing wrong with it occasionally. Now I want to come. Tang Luoyan should be bored every time he comes with her, right? However, it''s good now. He''s tired of her. She''s happy... It doesn''t make sense for three people. She''s the only one to force. Ye Ziyu thought, eating is also happy. Things in this milk tea shop are a little expensive. Although it is near the school, there are not as many people as expected It hasn''t closed down because the food in his family is really delicious. Many people will come to satisfy their greed after saving some time. Of course, Tang Luoyan, the little director of the Ministry of foreign affairs, often comes when ye Ziyu contacts him. Looking at Ye Ziyu''s unpretentious eating appearance, Tang Luoyan suddenly thought of the two people''s "communication". She mostly boasted while eating, and occasionally forced him to eat one. Although he didn''t like eating these small things, he would eat two bites in the end. But now Ye Ziyu is still happy to eat, but he won''t have to eat with her anymore! "Ziyu!" Tang Luoyan sighed and shouted. "Huh?" Ye Ziyu took the milk chips and looked at the other side of his mouth. Tang Luoyan slightly supported the table with his arms, holding his hands empty. Looking at Ye Ziyu, his eyes became more and more complicated, "I know that I hurt you a lot..." Ye Ziyu scratched a sneer at the corner of his mouth, lowered his eyes, took French fries and stained them with ketchup. She was a little fierce. The whole French fries were stained with orange red. It seemed that she was unwilling and twisted again. "But there are some things I can''t help!" Tang Luoyan laughed with self mockery, "under the pressure of Grandpa, I think maybe I can fall in love with you for a while, but in the end..." "You don''t have to say again and again in front of me that the person you love is ye Peiyao." Ye Ziyu raised his eyes coldly and wanted to throw the French fries with ketchup in his hand directly onto Tang Luoyan''s face. "Tang Luoyan, don''t say, you seem to be forced and helpless. There''s no way... From beginning to end, you''re not innocent, I''m innocent." "I know..." "No, you don''t know!" Ye Ziyu threw down the French fries in his hand and said coldly, "I really don''t have any impression of my parents... From the beginning of memory, I was with Xiaohua''s mother. When I was adopted by my father, I probably heard about my parents, but it happened that I didn''t have any waves in pieces." Tang Luoyan frowned slightly. He probably knew more about ye Ziyu''s biological parents than she did. "It''s funny," said Ye Ziyu, with a sharp sour nose. "The daughter of one of my parents doesn''t have much emotion, but you and your father treat me because of my parents..." she paused and found an adjective in the end, "good!" Tang Luoyan suddenly frowned and listened to Ye Ziyu continue: "my father is kind to me, I know, so I don''t say anything about the things that big ye Peiyao secretly did to me from childhood... I can hide if I can''t provoke it. It''s the kindness of my father''s upbringing." "But what about you?" Ye Ziyu sniffed, "you treat me well because you are filial to your grandfather. You fulfill your filial piety, but hurt my feelings... Why? Why do you and ye Peiyao hurt me because of the care of my father and grandpa Tang?" "Ziyu, it''s not like this..." "What''s that?" Ye Ziyu sneered, "Tang Luoyan, I don''t want to come today, but think about it. If you don''t come, you''ll still find a chance to say something... Why?" The sarcasm in the corner of her mouth is getting bigger and bigger, "to put it bluntly, you just want to feel comfortable and don''t let yourself feel guilty, so you want to have this conversation." Tears, inadvertently rolling down. Ye Ziyu wiped it mercilessly. I don''t know whether the tears at the moment feel sad or ridiculous. Well, it''s just like what I just wrote in the graffiti book. I shed tears for this man for the last time. Since then, they are strangers. They have nothing to do with each other except their apparent relationship. "Ziyu, do you really think that I came here today to make you forgive me and make myself comfortable?" Tang Luoyan''s voice was a little dull, and his face mocked himself. "I really came here to say something, but not to push away the responsibility." Ye Ziyu didn''t speak, but just looked at Tang Luoyan. Tang Luoyan sneered at himself. Looking at the tears on Ye Ziyu''s cheeks, he felt his heart tighten... Just because what she had just written in her notebook crossed his mind. "I admit your accusations, no matter the purpose of being with you at the beginning or secretly with Peiyao later... Or the harm caused to you by Peiyao and me for my filial piety." Tang Luoyan gritted his teeth and said, "these mistakes have been made, and I won''t escape... However, we will be a family in the future, and I don''t want to be strangers. Besides, I don''t want Uncle Ye to be estranged from you because I''m estranged from Peiyao. He really treats you as a daughter. You should often go back and see him." He looked at the milk tea in front of Ye Ziyu and said sadly, "Ziyu, this is the last time I bought milk tea for you..." after a pause, he raised his eyes and looked at her, "no matter how many right and wrong, I hope your happy heart is true!" Ye Ziyu wiped another tear, but the corners of his mouth held a sneer, "Tang Luoyan, are you true?" She snorted coldly, "do you know why I drank the milk tea you bought and ate the things you bought today? That''s because..." her eyes were awe inspiring, "... I want to tell you, you''re not so good, so good that I can''t forget it all the time!" Ye Ziyu clenched his hand slightly and said coldly, "there will eventually be a man. As long as I want to drink milk tea, he can buy it for me..." Chapter 1785 Tang Luoyan''s face was shocked. In a flash, his face became extremely ugly. Obviously, he didn''t think that ye Ziyu''s purpose of eating and drinking milk tea was this "Tang Luoyan, I hope you remember the purpose of your coming here today... And I hope you treat ye Peiyao well. I don''t want to be told by her that I never forget you and destroy you and her!" Ye Ziyu took a deep breath. "After all, I really didn''t treat you... If you care about me a little, you should understand my temper. It''s not mine. Even if I''m sad, I won''t force it!" Tang Luoyan''s face became a little embarrassed. Although his purpose of coming today was to read himself the final conclusion, he never thought that ye Ziyu would make such a decision. Ye Ziyu seemed to see his purpose, secretly and coldly hissed down, depressed his sadness and sadness, and said coldly, "you are really worthless to me!" Then she suddenly got up, grabbed her backpack, kept moving and left the milk tea shop. The setting sun has not completely disappeared outside. It is always a sense of incompleteness when it is scattered in the sky. His words hurt others and himself... But ye Ziyu doesn''t regret it. This is her, isn''t it? She is neither a kind person nor a white lotus... She just disdains the pity of others! Ye Ziyu turned around and walked down the path to the opposite place of the school She wants to be alone, or she doesn''t want to meet people she knows and see her vulnerability. However, there is always someone in this world who can see all your embarrassment! "Didi!" Behind her came the sound of a trumpet, which ye Ziyu ignored. Anyway, the sidewalk she took didn''t occupy the road. "Didi... Didi -" "..." Ye Ziyu pulled from the corner of his mouth, secretly scolded "paralysis" and turned around. He wanted to scold, but he saw that the man with a ruffian smell behind the windshield was smiling at her! Paralysis! Ye Ziyu still scolded, but in silence! Can''t this man stop appearing every time she''s embarrassed? Lin Nannan parked his car next to Ye Ziyu, lowered the window and said, "get in!" "Why?" Ye Ziyu asked angrily. Lin Nan raised his eyebrows. "I''ll find you a good place to cry!" "Lin Nan, which eye of yours sees me cry?" Ye Ziyu became irritable. Lin Nan glanced sharply across Ye Ziyu''s cheek, "I didn''t see you crying, but I saw you already crying..." "..." Ye Ziyu thought she was still a pretty lady girl, but at this moment, she burst out rude words every minute, "Lin Nanan, is there something wrong with your eyes... I didn''t cry, didn''t cry!" Lin Nan looked at Ye Ziyu and smiled. He was still very wanton. Ye Ziyu was depressed and died. He really wanted to punch Lin Nan in the face. "Get in the car. No kidding." Lin Nan smiled and said, "I''m going to order a cake for my sister and buy two sets of clothes to send to her school. Please give me a reference." Ye Ziyu looked at Lin Nanan suspiciously and wanted to say, I''m in a bad mood right now. Do you think it''s appropriate for you to find me? But after thinking about it, if you are sad about spring and autumn alone, you might as well let yourself have no time to think, and finally get on the bus. Just as she opened the door, Tang Luoyan came out of the milk tea shop and put Ye Ziyu on the Linxiang south train, all of which came to the bottom of his eyes. ha-ha! Tang Luoyan suddenly sneered, "Ye Ziyu, you can say that to me because of Lin Nannan!" ¡­¡­ Lin Nanan took Ye Ziyu to the city. There was no mention of her crying on the road. It seemed that it was really just a joke just now. "Do you have a sister?" Ye Ziyu is a little curious. "Well, my old man is old and unruly. He''s so old that he wants another one." Lin Nanan also said with some solemnity, "I''m ten years younger than me before I''m a freshman." After a pause, he glanced at Ye Ziyu. "You''re about the same age. It''s best to ask you for reference." "Excuse me, does your father know you say that about him?" Ye Ziyu asked curiously. "I don''t know whether the Father knows it or not, but the mother knows it." Lin Nan thought of Corning''s violent temper and immediately laughed, "then my mother beat me up." "Deserved it!" Ye Ziyu suddenly smiled in a good mood. Lin Nan''s eyes smoothed over her and slowly opened his mouth: "right, how hard is it for girls to cry? It''s better to smile..." "..." Ye Ziyu''s smile stiffened. He looked at Lin Nanfang for a while before gritting his teeth and said, "pointing to you, you just deceived me "Which one?" Lin Nan pretends to be a fool. "Just what you said, sister, what else..." "I really have a sister. I''m ten years younger." Lin Nan glanced at her again, grinned and raised his eyebrows. "However, the thing that my mother beat me is to deceive you..." he looked ahead and said with a long, confident fart, "no one in my family can beat me now." Ye Ziyu didn''t speak, but looked at Lin Nanan, whose face was filled with self-confidence. For a moment, he was absent-minded. Twenty nine to twenty-four, that''s what people with great achievements can do, right? For a regular promotion, he should now be up to twenty-one cents and die twenty-two cents. Such a man, self-confidence is a part of his body. The car stopped in front of a famous cake shop. I heard that every cake here is sold in limited quantities every day, belonging to blossom map under Emperor Group; TB catering institutions. "South!" A woman in her thirties came up. When the clerk saw Lin Nannan, his smiles bloomed. In that way, he was either secretly in love or too familiar. Ye Ziyu subconsciously looked at Lin Nan and listened to him change his previous image. He put his long arm on the woman, raised his eyebrow and said, "sister Wan, I haven''t seen you for a while. The more you shine." The woman who was called sister Wan smiled and scolded, "you haven''t seen me for a while, and you''re still not serious." Lin Nan let go of sister Wan and said with a smile on her face, "I''ll bring Xia Xia a cake. Are you ready?" "You said to come and get it today, but you''re still preparing..." sister Wan looked at the time. "I''ll make you a cup of coffee first," she said. She looked at her little girl without talking, and Lin raised his eyebrow to the south. "Then prepare two desserts for the little girl, which will be launched in our store. Why don''t you sit down first?" "Why don''t you make another cup of milk tea with your own characteristics?" Lin Nan said quietly, "she''ll just drink milk tea." Ye Ziyu, who followed him, still heard Lin Nannan''s whisper. Suddenly, for a moment, he forgot his reaction and looked at Lin Nannan It was a momentary sadness, but also a momentary complex to her heart. Chapter 1786 Sister Wan inadvertently looked at Ye Ziyu again. Then she looked at Lin Nanan with ambiguous eyes. She saw that he was helpless and didn''t say the joke. She just looked like "I know it" and nodded. "You speak, sister, I must do it myself." After that, Wan motioned for two people to wait in the rest area. Soon, a clerk brought Lin Nanan''s coffee with several small cakes for ye Ziyu. "Do you often come here to buy cakes for your sister?" Ye Ziyu asked curiously. That Wan sister seems to be the manager of this store, and the clerks are familiar with it. "Not often..." Lin Nan took a sip of coffee and said, "before I graduated from college, I spent the rest of my time in Los Angeles with my grandparents, except when I was in the military academy." He looked at Ye Ziyu. "My sister has been in Yicheng since childhood, and we have little time together... Later, we went to the army and were busy. We were more casual in the past two years and came out more." "But..." Ye Ziyu frowned and subconsciously looked at the operation room. Lin Nannan seemed not to be bothered, and lightly explained, "blossomamp; boss TB is my sister, so I''m familiar with him." "Oh..." Ye Ziyu nodded, and the cake seemed more delicious. She didn''t know what kind of psychology it was. She felt that Lin Nanan was familiar with sister Wan because of others. It seemed a little relaxed. "Special milk tea." Sister Wan quickly brought out a cup of milk tea and put it in front of Ye Ziyu. "Talk first. I still have something to finish in my studio." "You''re busy!" Lin Nan smiled and said a sentence. He shook his head helplessly for sister Shang Wan''s increasingly ambiguous sight. Ye Ziyu sniffed the mellow smell of milk tea and drank it. The sweetness of her mouth was smooth, but she was not bored at all... It made her feel like flying. She suddenly thought of what she had just said to Tang Luoyan in the milk tea shop. Her nose suddenly became sour and looked at Lin Nannan subconsciously Who knew he was looking at her, so she quickly took back her eyes and drank milk tea to hide her embarrassment. "Oh... Cough!" Because he drank too quickly and took another hard sip, ye Ziyu was tragically scalded. Lin Nan smiled and said, "Ye Ziyu, if you are guilty of being a thief, why can''t you live with yourself?" "..." Ye Ziyu looked depressed and looked sadly at Lin Nan. I was still comforting myself that without Tang Luoyan''s milk tea, at least a very excellent man immediately filled the space and gave her milk tea... Therefore, no one in this world can live without him. But the moved mind was destroyed by Lin Nan before it deepened its emotion. "Who is guilty of being a thief?" Ye Ziyu took out the meal paper, wiped his mouth and muttered, "you don''t look at me, can I look at you?" "You didn''t look at me. How did you know I was looking at you?" Lin Nan raised his eyebrows. That way, he didn''t want to be beaten. "..." Ye Ziyu looked at Lin Nannan more and more plaintively. The corners of his mouth moved back and forth. He wanted to say something. In the end, he couldn''t say anything. He had to drink milk tea and eat cake silently. "Is it still appetizing?" Lin Nan suddenly asked. "It''s delicious..." Ye Ziyu looked satisfied, "especially this cup of milk tea." "Well," said Lin, with his eyes slightly deep to the south, "so nothing is irreplaceable." Ye Ziyu''s action of digging the cake suddenly stopped. He looked up at Lin Nannan and saw him look aside She looked down Lin''s line of sight to the South and landed in the display cabinet, which was lined with several volcanic lava cakes with different flavors. She suddenly couldn''t tell the taste in her heart. Obviously, Lin Nanyi meant something to her, but strangely, she felt sadness from him. This man... So he will be sad too? Is she thinking too much? Lin Nanan didn''t seem to feel Ye Ziyu''s look, but looked at the volcanic lava cake and gradually lost his mind. In due time, sister Wan came out with a packed cake and saw Lin Nannan staring at the display cabinet. She looked at the exhibits in the display cabinet, frowned slightly and sighed deeply. Some people, maybe even after a long time, will not disappear... Only deeper and deeper in their hearts. "Elder sister, does Nan Shao think of that girl again?" A clerk asked softly. Sister Wan didn''t answer, but sighed deeply. When the troops came out of the lava City, they would buy cakes from Nanlin once in a while. He doesn''t eat either, just watch and drink a cup of coffee. When the coffee is finished and people leave, he won''t take the cake away... He said to invite the people in the store to eat. Later, after a few years, he came less and would not buy this cake again. He would just buy his sister''s favorite food for his sister. After leaving the cake shop, the atmosphere in the car was slightly depressed. What does Ye Ziyu want to ask, but he doesn''t know what he needs to ask? "Little fish..." Lin Nan suddenly opened his mouth. "Huh?" Ye Ziyu looked at him with doubts in his eyes. Lin Nan didn''t look at her, but looked ahead and asked, "you say, how long can a person stay in another person''s heart?" "I don''t know." Ye Ziyu lowered his eyes, "maybe for a long time, maybe... Will eventually be replaced." She said, laughing at herself. Lin Nan suddenly smiled. Ye Ziyu looked up at him blankly, and saw his evil ruffian hand coming and bouncing on her forehead, which made her cry in pain. "Lin Nan, why did you hit me again?" Ye Ziyu was dissatisfied. Lin Nan smiled but didn''t speak. He just parked the car in the parking lot of a shopping mall and motioned her to get off. Knowing that she was going to buy clothes for Lin Nan''s sister, ye Ziyu muttered discontentedly and got out of the car. When Lin Nan came to her side, he naturally took her hand and walked forward. Ye Ziyu only felt that the temperature and strength stunned her and even... Forgot to move. Lin Nan frowned slightly, "go!" "You..." Ye Ziyu spit out a word nervously and looked subconsciously at the folded hands of the two people. Lin Nanan didn''t seem to feel her embarrassment and tension. He took her into the mall without realizing anything wrong with his behavior? Of course, maybe I realized that I didn''t care! Well, that''s a strong reason! Lin Nan took Ye Ziyu''s hand and went to the guide sign first to find the floor of the light luxury brand. While he was looking at the floor, ye Ziyu wanted to pull her hand back. But Lin held it tighter to the south, so that she couldn''t pull it out at all. Ye Ziyu''s face turned red. He was thinking of opening his mouth to let Lin go to the south. He heard a startling voice "Ziyu?" Ye Peiyao and Tang Lu came together. She looked at Lin in amazement and asked Ye Ziyu, "how are you with Lin Nannan?" Chapter 1787 Tang Lu looked quietly at the place where Lin Nan and ye Ziyu held hands. There was a feeling of disgust in the bottom of her eyes. At the same time, her eyes swept Ye Ziyu. It''s just that she covered it up well. Different from ye Peiyao''s astonishment, it obviously seems that everything is known and doesn''t matter. Ye Ziyu didn''t expect to meet ye Peiyao and Tang Lu. Subconsciously, she wanted to take back the hand held by Lin Nan, but she moved and stopped. "What does that mean, sister?" Ye Ziyu raised his eyebrows and asked with a smile, "am I in the way of Nanfang? Or is Nanfang your boyfriend... So you''re so surprised?" She sneered and pointed, "I''m not used to eating nest grass..." "You..." "Little fish, I don''t like to hear that." Just when ye Peiyao was about to speak, Lin Nannan slowly said, "I''m not ye Peiyao''s boyfriend!" As he spoke, there was a trace of evil in his posture. That feeling made people feel some pressure. "...." Ye Ziyu pulled a little from the corner of his mouth and said that he wanted to praise Lin Nanan''s cooperation. Sure enough, ye Peiyao''s face was a little ugly. Tang Lu gently touched ye Peiyao, as if there had been no tension between the two sisters of the Ye family just now. She just said with a peaceful smile, "Peiyao and I are going shopping." she flashed over Ye Ziyu in a long voice, "Peiyao and my brother are going to get married soon. Pick some toast clothes for the wedding." Ye Ziyu''s body suddenly froze. It was one thing to say "no" to Tang Luoyan in the milk tea shop at that time. It is another thing to listen to Tang Lu''s happy words in such a light cloud and wind. Ye Ziyu looked at Ye Shengyu and smiled at him. Lin Nan held Ye Ziyu''s hand slightly tight, slightly raised a faint arc around the corner of his mouth, and slowly said, "if I can catch up with Zi Yu before your wedding with Director Tang, I will accompany Zi Yu to your wedding." ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡­¡± The three women fell in Lin Nan''s words and looked at her in amazement. Ye Peiyao is unbelievable, Tang Lu is confused, and ye Ziyu... Stupid! Lin Nan was still indifferent, his smile deepened a little, and said, "I''ll go shopping with the little fish, help yourself..." he just nodded and took Ye Ziyu to the escalator. "Lin Nan, why do you say that?" Ye Ziyu whispered, gritting his teeth. "Well, aren''t I cooperating with you?" Lin turned to the South and thought of Ye Ziyu, with a smile in his mouth. Ye Ziyu glared at him fiercely, bumped him slightly and asked him to distance himself. "What do you cooperate with me? I didn''t say you were chasing me!" "But someone said... Being with me doesn''t hinder others!" Lin Nan said with a solemn smile. Ye Ziyu was speechless and choked. He blinked innocent eyes and looked at Lin Nannan. His heart was roaring: paralyzed, I was trying to disgust ye Peiyao. I was trying to point out that she robbed her brother-in-law. Is your focus wrong?! Ye Ziyu is very depressed and decides not to continue this topic with Lin Nannan. Anyway, she has no ability to talk about him The two of them went upstairs with "affectionate" words. Ye Peiyao and Tang Lu, who were still standing in place, naturally couldn''t hear what they said. However, looking at the way they interact, they are close. "I heard about your blind date with Lin Nannan years ago?" Ye Peiyao looked at Ye Ziyu''s back and asked Tang Lu. Tang Lu smiled quietly at the corners of her mouth, but her eyes were cold, "who knows about feelings?" She didn''t say anything more, but said with a smile, "let''s go and see the bag... Bulgari has a few new limited models. I ordered them. Let''s go and have a look." Ye Peiyao nodded, took back her sight and went to the straight ladder with Tang Lu. However, when I was leaning, I looked slightly at the direction of the escalator... Although Lin Nannan and ye Ziyu had disappeared. ¡­¡­ Border, Falao city. Zhan Xiaoyun watched the staff in front loading a new batch of "items", then took the cigar in his mouth... Someone came forward and lit it for him. Just as he took two breaths, someone came over, "Zhan ye, Zhan Shao is back." Zhan Xiaoyun answered softly, "let him come over." "Yes!" The man answered respectfully and turned away. In a short while, a tall 185, strong, shaved, handsome man who looked exceptionally capable stepped over. "Adoptive father." Yan Zhan shouted respectfully. "Yes." Zhan Xiaoyun glanced at him, "did you find it?" "Mrs. Ming left before the man died. Later, for some reason, she kept hiding..." Yan Zhan said calmly. "I went to the small town to inquire about it. When I went there, Mrs. Ming was out of her mind. Later, everyone looked at her belly and took care of her neighbors. She was a little better because of her child." "Pregnant?" Zhan Xiaoyun immediately looked at Yan Zhan in amazement. Yan Zhan raised his eyes and nodded to SHANGZHAN Xiaoyun. "People in the town say Mrs. Ming is pregnant and should be true." "Later, it was said that there was some dystocia during production, and the medical treatment in the town couldn''t keep up. The situation was once critical... But fortunately, it was safe in the end." Zhan Xiaoyun''s complexion kept changing, mixed with an indescribable emotion. As if there was anger, as if there was heartache, more pain under guilt. Yan Zhan waited for Zhan Xiaoyun to digest the information slightly before he continued: "later, Mrs. Ming left the town after giving birth, and the people in the town have never seen her again..." his voice was a little dignified. "Later, Mrs. Ming died soon." "What about the child?" Zhan Xiaoyun asked, gritting his teeth. "I don''t know." Yan Zhan pondered slightly, "however, Mrs. Ming''s sister Qin Hua later opened a small private orphan shelter. It is unknown whether Mrs. Ming''s children are among them." Zhan Xiaoyun closed his eyes and broke his cigar because he forbeared too hard. When he opened his eyes again, the bottom of his eyes was already dark, but he asked vaguely: "boy or girl?" "Girl!" Yan Zhan replied. Zhan Xiaoyun''s eyes were burning, and he didn''t know whether he was too excited or too sad. His hand trembled slightly and said, "look!" He gritted his teeth. "I don''t care if Qin Hua adopted it or how... Find the girl!" Chapter 1788 "Yes!" Yan Zhan answered, "adoptive father, I''ll go down first." "Yes." Zhan Xiaoyun answered, and gradually recovered his mood and said, "ah Zhan, recently you''ll know where the girl is... Start with Qin Hua." Paused, "I want to be foolproof, okay?" Yan Zhan''s eyes moved slightly, and his eyes dropped in response to the voice, "I understand!" In those days, the adoptive father was ashamed of Qin Ming. Later, because of some things, Qin Ming died and he didn''t know... Now I hear that she still has a child alive, I''m afraid the adoptive father''s heart is filled with extravagant hopes? Although it may be true, it''s not extravagant! Turn around and leave the base. "Zhan Shao?" Seeing Yan Zhan coming, the bodyguard ah Lang looked at Zhan Xiaoyun standing in place in the distance, "what does Zhan ye say?" "Let''s go to Yicheng first." Yan Zhan didn''t say much. He kept telling him. Wolf looked at the clouds again, then answered the voice and left with Yan Zhan. ¡­¡­ Kaesong. Ye Ziyu found that as a girl, her vision of buying clothes was not as sharp as Lin Nannan, and said she was very upset. "Hello!" "Didn''t you call Nannan very smoothly at that time? Just call it that way, I don''t mind..." Lin Nannan interrupted Ye Ziyu''s words, suddenly attached to her, scared her to quickly step back and watch him, "but I don''t mind if you call me cat or something." "..." Ye Ziyu jerked uncontrollably from the corner of his mouth. He felt that when he became serious, he didn''t think he was such a rogue. "It''s good for a cat to eat fish!" Lin Nanlin added. "I''m still a little monster!" Ye Ziyu turned his lips and tuckled his eyes, and still did not realize the hidden meaning of the cat and fish. He just said, "you make complaints about yourself. What do you want me to do?" "I''ll make an appointment with you to enhance my feelings..." Lin Nan handed the card to the clerk to brush. At the same time, he half supported his arm on the table, looked at Ye Ziyu jokingly and said, "I didn''t Tell ye Peiyao just now. I''m chasing you!" "..." Ye Ziyu looked like he was going to cry without tears. "Lin Nannan, please say something!" Looking at her appearance that she was going to run away at any time, Lin Nan slightly raised his eyebrows and still said carelessly: "little fish, I really mean human words." "Shit!" Ye Ziyu turned his eyes and looked like a "ghost believes" and glanced. "Even if what you said is true, I''m still in love, so I don''t cooperate!" "Haven''t you heard that starting a new relationship is the best way to treat emotional injury?" Lin Nan asked with a smile. "Hehe." Ye Ziyu smiled coldly, "thanks, I''d better heal myself." "Really?" Lin Nan''s face suddenly leans toward Ye Ziyu. Ye Ziyu screamed "ah" and hurried back. Who knows that his foot accidentally hooked the model. He was unstable and fell back Lin stretched out his hand to the South and grabbed her wrist. While returning to the area, he wrapped his arms around Ye Ziyu, held the model, and then straightened it. All the movements were so smooth that people were stunned. Whether ye Ziyu, the clerk or even the customer who chose clothes, they were stunned one by one. "Awesome..." Ye Ziyu said in a surprised way. "So handsome!" The clerk handed the card and the packed clothes to Lin Nannan at the right time, with a peach in his eyes. Lin Nan nodded and smiled slightly, but politely alienated. "Let''s go!" He said and pulled Ye Ziyu out of the store. When the talent stepped out, he asked with a joking smile in his mouth, "look, little fish, how good is a man like me to be a boyfriend? I can help you fight in the face together and save you when you are in danger... It''s a necessary best boyfriend for home travel!" "Can you be more narcissistic?" Ye Ziyu said this, but there was something inexplicably flowing in his heart. It''s a strange feeling. It''s not like the throbbing with Tang Luoyan before, but it''s definitely not calm... It''s a more complex emotion. It''s like something wants to break through the prison "Self confident people can be narcissistic." Lin raised his eyebrows to the south. Ye Ziyu got into the car and whispered, "I don''t care whether you are confident or narcissistic. The question is, what do you want to chase me for fun? Is it interesting?" Lin Nanan was about to pull the seat belt. After listening to this, he felt something in his eyes. When the seat belt got stuck with a click, he said slowly, "Ye Ziyu, some things are really not for fun." Then he looked at Ye Ziyu, ignored her confused eyes, started the car and drove to Lin ranxia''s school Along the way, the atmosphere in the car was a little depressed. Unlike in the past, ye Ziyu was immersed in sadness, and this moment was caused by something that seemed to be about to be punctured, afraid but hoping for hesitation. Ye Ziyu gasped his mouth and his mind was a little confused... In the end, there was only the smell of Lin Nannan kissing her and the two people almost next to each other when he broke up the affair that night. At Lin ranxia''s school, ye Ziyu didn''t get out of the car. The little girl''s bright eyes kept glancing at the car, and she could hardly wait to stare through the windshield. Of course, she is not in love with brother, but curious! "Xiaonanzi, what''s in your car... Ow!" Lin ranxia said vaguely on his face. Before he finished speaking, Lin ranxia shuddered to the South and immediately wailed with pain. He covered his forehead with his hand and angrily accused, "it hurts!" "Elder brother doesn''t cry, still small south son?" Lin snorted to the south, "Lin ranxia, if you look like a ruffian again, be careful that I let the old man send you to the special training camp." Lin ranxia curled his lips, and his youthful face was unconvinced. "You know how to bully me... Hum, I''ll go to my sister-in-law to complain!" If that''s the case, she''s going to the car. Unfortunately, after only two steps, Lin Nan grabbed the collar and pulled it back like a chicken. "Lin Nanan, you bully people!" "You''re the one who bullied..." Lin Nan said, and gave Lin ranxia a shudder. Under her angry stare, she gave her clothes and cake. "I won''t come over on your birthday." "That''s it?" Lin ranxia was dissatisfied. Lin Nannan looked at the "greed" in her little sister''s eyes. With a helpless sigh, she took out her mobile phone and sent her a wechat red envelope. When Lin ranxia saw the amount, he immediately gave Lin Nan a cheek kiss from his sister''s dog leg, "brother, you are definitely my brother!" "...." Lin Nannan couldn''t cry or laugh. Lin ranxia looked at the car again. She knew that she couldn''t see the woman today, so she had to stop, "I''ll go back to the dormitory first..." she said, laughing and waving at Ye Ziyu in the car. Lin Nannan watched Lin ranxia enter the school gate before returning to the bus. As soon as he got on, he heard Ye Ziyu say, "I can see that you are very good to your sister." "I will be better to my woman!" Lin Nan said, smiling at Ye Ziyu, "how about being my woman?" Chapter 1789 Ye Ziyu tried to lift up the corners of his mouth, but he became stiff because of convulsions. "Lin Nannan..." "Huh?" Lin raised his eyebrows to the south. Ye Ziyu finally pulled down the corners of his mouth with a smile. "What do you like about me?" Lin Nan pondered slightly, and then said with a serious face: "I think you''re stupid!" "..." Ye Ziyu was very angry and said, "get out!" "Ha ha..." Lin Nan seemed to be teased by her angry appearance, and immediately laughed. Under Ye Ziyu''s grin, he started the car, left Lin ranxia''s school and drove to shendanan campus. "Laugh, not afraid to laugh!" Ye Ziyu groaned and said, looking out of the window at the passing night scene, she suddenly found that she had not easily appreciated the city for a long time. The atmosphere gradually quieted down, something crossed from my mind and suffocated. I don''t know whether the life in childhood was too simple or something. Ye Ziyu suddenly thought of playing games with Xiaohua''s mother in that small yard when she was a child. "Lin Nannan..." Ye Ziyu shouted and looked back at Lin Nannan. "Huh?" "Well, if you''re not busy, can you take me to the first people''s hospital first?" Ye Ziyu asked. Lin glanced south at her. "Are you uncomfortable?" "No," Ye Ziyu said in an awkward voice, "my mother Xiaohua, who adopted me when I was a child, was hospitalized. I don''t know why. I''m a little uneasy and want to go and have a look." "OK." Lin answered to the south. At the intersection ahead, he turned to the road to the hospital. "Thank you." Ye Ziyu glanced at the corner of his mouth and looked at Lin Nan''s line of sight, with a touch of unclear thoughts. The man who "took" her first kiss, if chasing her is not a joke, she always feels that it won''t be long before she can get out of the harm done to her by Tang Luoyan, and then is willing to let him draw a prison for her. After arriving at the hospital, ye Ziyu went to Qin Hua''s ward, but found that her bed had been changed. First, she was stunned, and then she made sure she didn''t go to the wrong ward. Then she asked in surprise: "excuse me, where is the person who originally had this bed?" "You mean Xiao Qin?" At the right time, an old lady holding the wall came in with the help of a man, "Xiao Qin was discharged the day before yesterday." "Ah? Discharge?!" Ye Ziyu''s eyes widened and his face changed smoothly. Xiaohua''s mother''s condition is not very good. How can she be discharged from the hospital? Besides, she didn''t listen to Xiaohua''s mother say she was going to leave the hospital last time? Thinking, she hurriedly asked, "grandma, do you know how she is? How did she leave the hospital?" The old lady shook her head. "It seems that someone came to go through the discharge formalities for her. I don''t know the details." "Thank you." Ye Ziyu didn''t look well, so he quickly turned around and went to the nurse station. Lin glanced at the old lady and Empress Dowager to the south, and turned to chase Ye Ziyu. "Excuse me, when did Qin Hua in bed 3 in that ward leave the hospital? Isn''t she still in bad condition? How did she leave the hospital?" Ye Ziyu asked the nurse on duty in a hurry. "Excuse me, are you..." the nurse looked at Ye Ziyu suspiciously. "Hello, I''m Qin Hua''s..." Ye Ziyu paused and didn''t know how to explain their relationship. Finally, he simply said, "I''m her daughter. My name is Ye Ziyu." "Oh, you are ye Ziyu!" The nurse was surprised, then took out a letter in the drawer and said, "when Ms. Qin left the hospital, she said you would come and let me hand over this letter to you." "..." Ye Ziyu frowned and thanked him suspiciously after receiving the letter. Lin Nanan keenly felt something. When ye Ziyu wanted to dismantle it, he took her shoulder and said, "get in the car and have a look!" I asked, but I couldn''t refuse. Ye Ziyu didn''t know if he was in a trance and confused. He nodded in a strange way. Lin Nan hugged him and left the Department and went to the parking lot. In the car, ye Ziyu seemed unable to understand the behavior of leaving letters. After all, isn''t it faster and more convenient to make a phone call?! After taking a breath, ye Ziyu took out the letter and opened it... It was Qin Hua''s beautiful, regular and beautiful font. Ziyu, please forgive Xiaohua''s mother''s "leaving without saying goodbye". From the moment I held you in my arms, I always thought that maybe God gave me a chance to atone for you... And those children, so that everyone can have a home. But later I learned that some sins were caused, that is, a lifetime debt, which can''t be paid off. I don''t want to continue to bear this debt, and I don''t want to change other people''s lives because of myself. What''s more, I don''t want to be in the hospital bed all day, smelling the pungent smell of disinfectant every day, looking at the obscure white, as if waiting for the arrival of death. You know Xiaohua''s mother. Xiaohua''s mother is a person who likes to keep her time and experience in the sun. Ward, not suitable for mother Xiaohua. The sudden discharge is not to reduce your burden, nor is it to abandon treatment. I just feel that instead of waiting for the passage of time all day, I''d better do something I once wanted to do but never had the opportunity to do. For example, a trip, an encounter, an adventure, a thrilling Don''t worry about me. If one day I stay on a certain distance, I will stay there after all. Please bless Xiaohua''s mother, OK? Ziyu, finally, Xiaohua''s mother hopes you can forgive my selfishness. Xiaohua''s mother also hopes you can live your wonderful life and meet the person who really loves you. What can be lost is not the best. The best will always be waiting for you on your way Love your little flower mother! The light sound of "PATA" was a little heavy in the quiet space. Ye Ziyu''s tears fell on the paper, and his hand holding the letter trembled slightly. "Mother Xiaohua..." Ye Ziyu choked, sniffed and looked sad, "why?" Lin Nannan glanced at the letter paper in Ye Ziyu''s hand, and then looked at Ye Ziyu. His eyes were deep, and there was something surging in the depths. He narrowed his eyes. "Little fish, everyone has the life and life everyone wants. Even if you are worried or how, don''t kidnap others with your emotions." Ye Ziyu glanced at Lin Nanan with red eyes and said, "but mother Xiaohua is not in good health. If she is in good health, I won''t..." She wanted to talk and stopped, and tears couldn''t stop flowing out. Also because he was too sad, even though ye Ziyu looked at Lin Nan''s line of sight, he was choked with tears. He didn''t find the flash of emotion at the bottom of his eyes, which showed his helplessness. Some things, years ago... He knew. Chapter 1790 On the way back to school, there was silence in the car. Because of his special status, Lin Nan''s car can go in and out of the campus freely. He sent Ye Ziyu directly to the road near her dormitory. "Ziyu, some things cannot be avoided. Instead of worrying with sadness, why not pray for happiness?" Lin Nan looked at Ye Ziyu when the car stopped and said. Ye Ziyu looked south at Shanglin. From his eyes, she felt something reassuring and nodded subconsciously. Lin Nan smiled and rubbed Ye Ziyu''s head. "Well, it''s late. Go upstairs!" Ye Ziyu nodded, untied his seat belt and silently opened the door. She just opened it slightly. She stopped, looked back at Lin, raised her mouth to the South and said, "thank you!" After a slight meal, she smiled at the corner of her mouth, "whether it''s your appearance when I''m sad, or in front of Ye Peiyao, and your words now..." She smiled and waited for Lin to speak to the south. Her face was slightly red and she got out of the car in a hurry. Because I was too anxious, I tripped slightly and almost fell when I got off the bus. Lin Nan immediately laughed happily. Ye Ziyu''s embarrassed face turned red, glared at him fiercely and left in a hurry. Ye Ziyu didn''t understand why every time she was in front of Lin Nanan, she let herself fly and showed her "unique" side in front of him without reservation. Just as ye Ziyu hurried back to the corridor, from a distance, Youdao looked down from the hidden place of her back at the entrance of the building, then turned his head to Lin and turned the direction of the car to the south. That line of sight, in the place where the light is less than, in the dark environment, exudes a cold smell ¡­¡­ As soon as ye Peiyao entered the house, she heard a quarrel in the master bedroom upstairs. She frowned slightly, put her shopping on the sofa and went upstairs "Ye Quande, are you still thinking about Qin Ming?" Luo Suya''s sharp voice came, "that woman has died for so many years. Haven''t you put it down from beginning to end?" "What are you talking about?" Ye Quande''s voice was cold. "How many times do you want me to say it? I was Qin Ming''s sister. We grew up together. I know Minquan likes her. How can we compete with our brothers?" "Hehe, it is because Zhao Minquan likes Qin Ming that you have become a secret love that you will put her in your heart all your life. Don''t think I don''t know!" Luo Suya sneered coldly, "ye Quande, when I was talking with you about the object, Qin Ming was unhappy. It wasn''t a phone call, so you went? Ah?!" "Unreasonable!" Ye Quande was irritated and turned to go out to calm Luo Suya down. Behind him came a "bang Dang". Ye Quande endured it and turned to look at Luo Suya who was crazy, "have you had enough?" "Ye Quande, do you think I''m making trouble as long as I say Qin Ming?" Luo Suya''s hands were tightly clenched up and down, as if she were restraining her emotions. Ye Quande''s eyes were deep, endured to the end and said, "Qin Ming has been away for 20 years. You always take a dead man to make trouble with me. Is it interesting?" "But her daughter is at Ye''s house, reminding me all the time that you have a Qin Ming in your heart!" Ye Quande was irritated and said coldly, "my son Yu is not only because of Qin Ming, but also because of Minquan. Their husband and wife have left. The only daughter is my friend, brother and brother... I have to take care of her!" "Don''t speak with high sounding..." Luo Suya''s eyes are red. "Who knows if ye Ziyu is Zhao Minquan''s daughter? According to the time, she may also be..." "Shut up!" Ye Quande coldly interrupted Luo Suya''s words, "Suya, are you crazy? Do you dare to talk nonsense like this?" Luo Suya was suddenly stunned, as if she suddenly realized something, and her face became frightened. "Think about it. I''ll go to the company... You calm down, too." When ye Quande finished, he looked coldly at Luo Suya and turned to leave. However, when he put his hand on the doorknob, he seemed to think of something and said without looking back: "Suya, Ziyu is the child of Minquan!" He said fiercely, opened the door and stepped out of the bedroom. Ye Peiyao hurried to the pillar on one side. After ye Quande slammed the door and left, she looked at the direction of the master bedroom with a look of surprise. Her face was changeable. Since her father brought Ye Ziyu back, she knew that her mother was unhappy, but she didn''t say anything? Unexpectedly, my mother doesn''t like it. It turns out that there are the love and hatred of their generation in it It''s just that mom was just interrupted by her father. What do you want to say? Isn''t Ye Ziyu the daughter of Zhao Minquan and Qin Ming? What exactly does that mean? Ye Peiyao thought, but because she didn''t know much about the previous generation, she couldn''t understand it. "Will Luo Yan know?" Ye Peiyao whispered, looked at the direction of the bedroom, turned downstairs, took the shopping, and went upstairs again as if nothing had happened At the right time, Luo Suya came out of the room and was stunned when she saw ye Peiyao. Then she smiled and asked, "Yao Yao, when did you come back?" "Just came in," said Ye Peiyao. "I just saw my father go out. What are you doing so late?" "Oh, the company has something to deal with temporarily. Go and deal with it." Luo Suya''s expression is impeccable, so people can''t see that he has just argued with ye Quande. Ye Peiyao didn''t poke it either. She just said "go upstairs and take a bath first" and went upstairs. Upstairs, ye Peiyao looked back at Luo Suya and suddenly said, "Mom, I made an appointment with Ziyu to come back at the weekend, thinking that the whole family is here, and specifically set a wedding date for Luo Yan and me." "Have you discussed with Luo Yan?" Luo Suya had a touch of pleasure at the bottom of her eyes. "After discussion, it is estimated that it will look like a month or so." Ye Peiyao said with a smile. "OK." Luo Suya nodded and a proud smile crossed her face. Qin De''s daughter is destined to be abandoned by the man who didn''t like Qin de''s. ¡­¡­ Big. Lin made an inspection tour to the south. After confirming that there was nothing wrong, he explained the people on duty at night and turned back to the dormitory. Li Hao saw him coming back, stood at attention and saluted, "Captain." "Yes." Lin Nannan answered faintly, and walked in while Li Hao opened the door. His cold appearance was completely different from the full flavor of military ruffians in front of Ye Ziyu. "Chief Lang called. I said you were out. He asked you to come back and call him, no matter how late." Li Hao followed him in. Lin Nan gave his forehead a headache, took his mobile phone, leaned lazily on the TV cabinet and dialed Lang Xiaolin''s phone, "chief?" "I''ve heard from the border. There''s something moving over there..." Lang Xiaolin said, "but who''s entering the country? I can''t find it!" Chapter 1791 Lin Nan frowned slightly, and soon recovered his calm. He just answered faintly, "HMM." "How''s your side?" Lang Xiaolin asked. "I have a good grasp of my progress, so the head should not worry." Lin Nan said without salt and water. Lang Xiaolin choked and scolded angrily, "smelly boy!" Paused, "OK, you can do it yourself. Anyway, I''m relieved of you... But still that sentence, we must grasp the degree!" "Yes." Lin answered to the South and got a lot of hair. Lang Xiaolin was a little surprised. He opened his mouth and wanted to say something. Finally, he turned into a dark sigh, "OK, I''ll tell you about it. You can rest early!" "OK." Lin answered and hung up. Chief Lang called him because he needed to complete the task independently. Even the guard Li Hao, who was close to him, could not know. Li Hao saw Lin Nan''s face was a little dark and wanted to ask about the situation, but when he reached his mouth, he swallowed it back. Whether it''s a task or something, when the captain wants to explain, he will naturally explain. "You go down and have a rest!" Lin opens to the south. "Yes!" Li Hao stood at attention, turned around and left in unison. Once they are branded as soldiers, they seem to have been engraved in their bones for a lifetime At all times, words and deeds are upright in public. Li Hao closed the door gently, subconsciously looked at it, and finally went to the next room. I don''t know why. He always felt that the captain was in a bad mood But if the chief gives an account of the task or asks about the situation here, the captain won''t have that mood? Li Hao stopped, scratched his head in a daze, looked sideways, opened his door and entered the dormitory. The captain''s status level is very high now. He has not been transferred, but because of his love and belief in special brigade. And these people still call him captain because they called him so from the beginning. No matter how high the captain level is, they are still used to calling and being kind! When Li Hao thought of this, he blew a whistle, took a change of clothes and went to the bathroom to take a bath. In his eyes, or in other words, the whole silver fox special team, Lin Nan is an omnipotent existence. No matter how difficult the task is, as long as he is there, there is nothing that cannot be completed Naturally, Li Hao didn''t tangle with the emotion that had just been released from the south for a long time. After all, it was the God of the silver fox special team and the God of war who was given the title of the special team! ¡­¡­ After a while, ye Ziyu and I went back to the dormitory to wash their beds. She has no class tomorrow morning and plans to get up early to translate the materials she got from Linmao international. She is not in the mood to do it tonight. Lying in bed with the little lamp on, ye Ziyu took out the letter from Xiaohua''s mother again. Watching, the sad mood surged up again However, without Lin Nanan around this time, she can''t let her sadness affect the rest of her roommates. Sometimes people are very strange. They don''t want to bother their friends, but they can be unscrupulous towards people they don''t know very well... Maybe they are talking about people like her! Ye Ziyu took a breath secretly and sighed slightly. Suddenly Ye Ziyu suddenly thought of something and looked somewhere in the letter. to expiate sin?! What does mother Xiaohua mean when she says "I think I can make atonement"? What crime? Why did mother Xiaohua atone? Ye Ziyu couldn''t figure it out. She frowned and read the letter again. She didn''t see why. She simply put the letter away, turned off the light, took out her mobile phone, thought about it, and sent a text message to Lin Nannan. Well, ye Ziyu thinks that few people use text messages now, but she only has Lin Nanan''s phone, which she saved when shopping. Xiaoyu''er: Lin Nannan, Xiaohua''s mother said atonement in her letter. What do you think it means? As soon as Lin Nan came out of the bath, he put a bath towel around his waist, revealing his strong wheat skin with scar marks everywhere. He sat down, took his cell phone and saw a text message from ye Ziyu. He opened it and looked at it. His eyes were slightly deep. He replied: I have no intersection with your mother Xiaohua. How can I know what crime she redeemed? As soon as ye Ziyu saw it, the corners of his mouth twitched. He hasn''t replied yet. Lin Nannan sent another message: do you have a class tomorrow? Ye Ziyu replied: there is a festival in the afternoon. Lin Nannan: Well, come to me in the evening, bring the letter and I''ll analyze it for you. Your pig head, I don''t expect to guess. "..." Ye Ziyu was speechless immediately. Shit, you let me see you at night, whether I have classes tomorrow? What does it matter?! And what''s her pig brain? Although she is not Xueba, she is one step away from Xueba, okay?! Call her stupid, Lin Nanan... You''re stupid, your whole family is stupid! Grinning, ye Ziyu didn''t reply. Angrily, he threw his mobile phone aside and closed his eyes to sleep. After sending the message, Lin Nannan didn''t wait for ye Ziyu to reply. He threw his mobile phone on the bed, got up, took out a cigarette and lit it. He leaned lazily against the window in the dark light, and his eyes fell deeply on the hospital Ye Ziyu estimated that he would be so angry that he didn''t reply. Sure enough... He didn''t reply. The smoke came out of Lin''s eyes, and he slowly raised his hand to the south. Qin Hua''s so-called atonement should have something to do with Zhao Minquan and Qin Ming? However, in those years, who was right and who was wrong, who was right and who was wrong... Now who can distinguish and judge? Qin Hua''s departure is estimated to be the "credit" of Ye Quande. Naturally, his guess can''t be said to Ye Ziyu. Thinking of this, Lin Nan sighed deeply. Suddenly he remembered Ye Xuan and frowned. What on earth is this boy coming back for? Just as Lin turned his eyebrows to the south, in a waste factory on the outskirts of Yicheng, a star lit fire loomed in the dark... It only appeared when smoking. "Xuanzi, what are you going to do next?" Someone asked, with a touch of anxious waiting in his voice. Ye Xuan leaned on a rusty machine and took a hard smoke. His face was full of complex emotions. Both of them have adapted to the darkness. The person who began to speak looked at Ye Xuan''s face and had complex emotions in the bottom of his eyes. "You learn the sound vividly, and now you have changed your appearance. In fact, you can have a try." Ye Xuan didn''t speak, but took another breath of smoke. When he spit out the smoke, there was a strange emotion on his face. "Xuanzi, you are still struggling..." the man said slowly without any cover up. "Is it because of Lin Nan?" When he saw Ye Xuan coming over, he said coldly, "you''re afraid that some things are out of control and you''ll kill him!" Chapter 1792 Ye Xuan''s vision was suddenly deep. He looked at the person opposite coldly and clenched his gums, as if he were a wild beast going crazy and would lose his mind at any time. "Li Jincheng, do I need you to guess?" Ye Xuan endured for a while before gritting his teeth and saying. The man who was called Li Jincheng was unmoved. He just laughed coldly, and his eyes became cold. "Ye Xuan, some things you didn''t do have been done, you shouldn''t stand in line, you''ve stood in line, and now there''s no way back..." he continued, "I''m thinking about you. If you drag on like this, you''ll be nobody inside and outside." Ye Xuan threw the cigarette away and put it out with his feet. His actions can be seen by people with clear eyes, but this is the case in this world You have chosen a way. Whether you like it or not, you can only pay for your original choice! "Think about it," Li Jincheng came forward and patted Ye Xuan on the shoulder. "I''ll give you a voice over there and try to give you more time to decide..." he withdrew his hand and sighed, "but, xuanzi... You know, I don''t have the ability to change anything. I won''t delay for too long." Li Xuancheng opened his eyes and looked at me slowly Li Jincheng nodded without saying anything, "then I''ll go first and contact you later." "OK." Ye Xuan answered and watched Li Jincheng leave with a deep sigh. He turned and left the waste factory and quickly disappeared into the night. Shortly after ye Xuangang left the factory, Li Jincheng turned back to the abandoned factory. After waiting for about half an hour, there was a noise outside. His cat waist was on one side to pay attention to the people coming. After seeing that the person getting off the bus was the one he wanted to wait for, he sent out a secret signal. The man looked at the factory and walked in with steady steps. "Chief!" Li Jincheng saluted the visitor in the dark. "How was your conversation with Ye Xuan?" Asked the chief. Li Jincheng nodded. "There are signs of loosening," he paused. "However, I''m afraid the relationship between him and Lin Nanan..." The chief sneered, "it''s all right. This time he went to Xi Hongwen''s side, but it''s better." "What does the chief mean?" Li Jincheng frowned and was puzzled. "Lin Nan and ye Ziyu have been walking very close recently. Although I don''t know whether it''s because of Ye Xuan or myself, there''s always a breakthrough if you blow the wind again." Chief Li Jincheng understood immediately. Ye Ziyu is only adopted by the Ye family, and ye Xuan is only a nominal brother and sister, but there is no blood relationship Ye Xuan likes Ye Ziyu. Even if he is patient, he can still see it. For example, he has a leader! "Chief, I can''t figure out why Ye Xuan came to Xi Hongwen?" Li Jincheng frowns. After all, now that science and technology are developed, it''s easy to do something or become a stranger if you have the heart. You don''t have to go to Xi Hongwen. "Xi Hongwen and Lin Nannan are at odds. There''s no need to send someone to provoke... Is that what you mean?!" After the head said Li Jincheng''s doubts, he smiled coldly, "it''s not easy to want one of the two Schilling families to fight secretly for so many years." After a pause, the man said coldly, "it''s about to change the term. I don''t want to have an accident at this juncture." Li Jincheng thought and understood The position of No. 1 is going to retreat. Who will fill the position of No. 1 has become the concern of many people today. Because, unlike previous sessions, there are as many as four candidates for No. 1 this time! ¡­¡­ The next day, the weather became warmer and warmer, and the smell of spring in the air became stronger and stronger. Today, the exchange group is going to visit the Museum of Yicheng and some historical things. Lin Nannan is also arranged to accompany him. Travel is different from school. All possible conditions on the road need to be considered. Lin Nan took the two groups with him. At the same time, he accompanied him personally. However, Lin Nannan regretted it since he got on the bus. "Nan, let Ye Zi come and play with us tonight?" Ihad said in English, "I like her very much. I think she is smart and cute. Mainly, she is also very beautiful." "I''m afraid you have such an idea because you have only contacted it once." Lin Nan''s voice was faint. "She''s not smart or cute, mainly... She looks good, but she''s not beautiful." "But I think it''s beautiful!" As a crooked nut, Ihad naturally couldn''t hear the hidden meaning of Lin Nannan''s tone, but said excitedly, "I remember you have a sentence called..." he thought and thought about how to say, "it''s'' beauty in the eyes of lovers'', I remember that in the eyes of happy people, whether the other party is good or not, it''s good for him!" "..." Lin looked deeply to the South and turned to ehad, "lover? Favorite person?" He whispered softly, but with danger in his voice. Li Hao is the driver of their car, and the co driver is another exchange student from the University of Munich. Li Hao wanted to resist the feeling of laughing and let himself be the most qualified driver who didn''t change his face when Mount Tai collapsed at the top, but he really couldn''t help it. The captain''s vinegar is killing him. However, under the cultural differences, the two crooked nuts didn''t understand the particularity of Lin nanqingyi''s two sentences, but felt a certain breath from him. Ihad looked at Lin Nan innocently, "Nan, what''s the matter with you? Is there something wrong?" Lin Nan''s face is black, and Li Hao is holding back his smile and is about to hurt himself. "If you''re really uncomfortable," Erhard continued to care, "wait, you don''t need to be with me all the time. The people around you are very powerful and there will be no accident!" Shit, shut up! Lin Nan roared in his heart. If it wasn''t for the national image, he must roar directly, and then he stunned ahad with one palm! He can''t do it now. "Thank you for your concern. I''m fine." "It''s all right..." Erhard let out a sigh of relief, turned around and said excitedly, "Ye and I are not lovers now, but I like her really... Nan, can you bring her to me in the evening?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Lin Nan twitched at the corner of his mouth, and Li Hao continued to hold back his smile. "Alas, it seems too abrupt?" When ehad saw Lin Nannan not talking, he thought he was worried about it. He pondered a little and said with his eyes suddenly shining, "by the way, you can find her and say that I have something personal and I want her to help translate." Lin Nan smiled at the corner of his mouth, just a fake smile. "I guess it will disappoint you..." "Ah?" Ehad was stunned. Lin nanyouyou said, "I happened to meet her yesterday. I heard her mention that I was dating my boyfriend tonight!" "What?" Ihad stared at Lin Nan, "Ye Zi has a boyfriend?" Chapter 1793 Lin Nan lied without changing his face. "You also said that she is smart, lovely and beautiful... Do you think such a girl will have no boyfriend?" As soon as Ihad heard this, he immediately drooped his shoulders and looked distressed. Just how excited and urgent he was, how lost and sad he was now Li Hao looked at Lin Nan in the back seat from the rearview mirror and shook his head: high! It''s really high! The captain''s face remains unchanged and his ability to tell lies solemnly. He really needs to practice for a few more years before he can get the essence wait! Li Hao suddenly reacted and looked at Lin Nan in the back seat from the rearview mirror The captain just said that Miss Ye''s boyfriend didn''t mean himself?! Tut Tut, the captain is shameless. It''s estimated that he can''t learn all his life The car drove all the way to the museum, and ye Ziyu, who was translating materials in the library at the moment, didn''t know he had a new "boyfriend"! Ye Ziyu has been busy all morning. After lunch, ye Ziyu plans to go back to the dormitory to sleep and go to class. Suddenly, she glanced at Song Lanlan coming out of one side of the building. She stopped and just wanted to shout, she saw someone in her family chasing after Song Lanlan... As if, what were the two arguing about? Ye Ziyu twisted his eyebrows and wanted to go over. He only took two steps and felt inappropriate. After all, people are quarrels between lovers. Even if she cares about song Lanlan, she has no position. Ye Ziyu was waiting on the way to the dormitory. Sure enough, soon, song Lanlan came over with an angry face, clenched hands and gnashing teeth. "Eh?" Song Lanlan''s steps suddenly stopped, his sight fell in front of the side, and stood in the backlight. Ye Ziyu, who was turning the book, was stunned, and then walked over, "leaf?!" Ye Ziyu closed the book and raised her eyes. Seeing song Lanlan coming over, she subconsciously looked behind her... She saw someone walking away in the opposite direction to them. "What happened to you and someone?" Ye Ziyu asked, "I came over after dinner and saw you arguing." "Shit, that bitch!" When it comes to someone, song Lanlan suddenly has a mother''s unhappy face, "I''m finished with him!" "Ah?!" Ye Ziyu opened his mouth slightly in amazement and couldn''t react for a moment. Song Lanlan and someone in her family have been in love since freshman year. They agreed to get married after graduation. It''s usually very good... It''s too sudden! "Lan Lan?" Ye Ziyu frowned at Song Lanlan. Song Lanlan just looked angry. At this moment, when she saw a friend asking, her eyes suddenly turned red, slightly tilted her head, pulled the corners of her mouth with self mockery, "go back to the dormitory!" Ye Ziyu looked painfully at Song Lanlan, who had always been big, and nodded at the corner of his mouth. When she got to the dormitory, song Lanlan couldn''t help crying. Ye Ziyu took the paper and wiped it for her. He sat silently with her without asking. Song Lanlan cried for a while before sobbing and said, "someone told me that Qin Xu might steal food. Let me pay attention... I said it''s impossible. I believe him, but what''s the last?" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Ye Ziyu frowned and suddenly found that men are really fucking amorous! No, it''s amorous! "I trusted him so much that I even gave myself to him... I thought I would follow him anyway." Song Lanlan wiped her tears, sniffed at herself and said, "but it turns out that many women are as stupid as me." She sneered, looked at Ye Ziyu and said, "Ye, you know what? After I found out, I just went to question him, and he said... I love you most, and my heart is all right. Why can my body only be mine? Why are you so ridiculous? Qin Xu, that King bastard, can say such disgusting words..." "I just fucked my eyes with shit. That''s why I gave up on him. I think he will only love me and spoil me all over the world!" The more song Lan said, the more tears. Ye Ziyu didn''t speak. He comforted her and listened. She knows that Lan Lan just wants to talk now. "He still wants to marry me. I''m paralyzed. Do you think my mother can''t live without him?" Song Lanlan''s face was full of sadness and pain, but she gnashed her teeth and said, "even if all the men in the world die, it''s impossible for me and him!" "But you love him!" Ye Ziyu said softly. Song Lanlan was stunned and looked at Ye Ziyu, but for a few seconds, "wow" cried, "leaf, are you so comforting?" She sobbed at the accusation. Ye Ziyu was sad and hugged song Lanlan. Her eyes fell slightly empty in front, "in love, if a girl is deeply trapped, she will always suffer..." She wanted to comfort song Lanlan, but finally found that she was also such a tragedy... If she was comforted, she became pale. Fortunately, song Lanlan has been a man for a while. "Leaf, I love him very much... Because it''s my first love and I''ve paid all my feelings." Song Lanlan wiped her tears again and smiled bitterly, "but no matter how much I love, I won''t be with him. Today he can tell me that the body doesn''t matter, tomorrow he can tell me, and the heart doesn''t matter... After all, the body and mind betrayed, but people are still around me, aren''t they?" Song Lanlan took a deep breath and smiled with self mockery, "you don''t need to cheat a hundred times... Qin Xu and I are really finished... Even if I can''t feel the pain, I won''t look back." "You are right!" Ye Ziyu raised his hand and wiped away the tears from Song Lanlan''s eyes. Whether it''s Tang Luoyan or Qin Xu, there are too many such men... Eating and looking at the pot, I always feel that my body and mind can be separated, like and have fun. But who the fuck do they think they are? Are girls going around them? Shit! "What are you thinking? Gnashing your teeth?" Lin Nan propped himself on the steering wheel with one hand and looked at Ye Ziyu, who had fallen into his mood since he got on the bus, and asked funny questions. Ye Ziyu looked at Lin Nannan. Maybe it was because he thought of Tang Luoyan and Qin Xu. Along with Lin Nannan, who was of the same sex as them, he also hated the house and black. "I was thinking that men are not good things!" "..." Lin yanked to the corner of his mouth, "Ye Ziyu, are you going to overturn a universe?" "Hum!" Ye Ziyu hissed coldly and looked out of the window. "Come on, tell me, what wonderful things have you encountered after a day''s absence?" Lin Nan raised his eyebrows. "Little fish, don''t tell me, it''s Tang Luoyan again!" "Roll, Tang wool''s rock!" Ye Ziyu turned his head and roared angrily. Seeing Lin laughing jokingly to the south, he vented his anger and told about his friends and boyfriend. "Normal!" Lin opened his mouth to the South and said under Ye Ziyu''s glare, "which woman hasn''t met one or two scum men in her life?" "Are you a scum man?" Chapter 1794 "..." Lin Nan was stunned at first and then laughed, "Ye Ziyu, are you stupid?" "Stupid but you!" Ye Ziyu said with some hatred. "You said you asked me if I was scum, can I tell you my scum?" Lin Nan shook his head as if he couldn''t stand it. "I won''t tell you!" "So... You''re scum!" Ye Ziyu was a little angry, as if he had caught a loophole in his words. "You... Guess?" Lin Nan suddenly leaned under her body and was so frightened that ye Ziyu leaned back. When she heard a "bang", a painful and stuffy sound spilled out of her mouth. "Lin Nannan, i..." Ye Ziyu bumped her head against the car glass, and her tears were about to come out. "I''m your uncle!" With a soft bang, ye Ziyu ate a shudder on her forehead, which made her cry "wow". "Girl, when you are angry, you will be rude!" Lin Nanan seemed to be teaching Ye Ziyu a lesson, but there was no anger or disgust on his face. "That''s not because of you?" Ye Ziyu said angrily, "I''m usually a lady, okay?" There is a grievance on her forehead. "Oh... Only for me?" Lin Nan''s eyes were deep, and a smile came into his mouth. It was obvious that ye Ziyu''s words pleased him. When ye Ziyu saw his appearance, he jerked at the corners of his mouth, glanced at his eyes and scolded, "I''m sick!" Scolding him, he''s still happy. He''s either caught in the forehead or his head is in water?! "What would you like to eat?" Lin Nannan didn''t argue with Ye Ziyu any more. He just asked casually and looked ahead. "There are strings of incense, hot pot, Sichuan food... Well, there is a good hot and sour powder shop over there." He said and looked at Ye Ziyu. "After eating, find a grove and I''ll analyze the letter for you." "Eat string incense." Ye Ziyu murmured and suddenly frowned, "why go to the grove to analyze the letter?" "If the result of the analysis is not good, you need comfort. I''ll lend you my generous chest..." Lin Nan said with a smile, "but I''m a normal man and easy to work in the woods!" Ye Ziyu was stunned and reacted for a long time before he understood Lin Nanan''s meaning, "Lin Nanan, you bastard!" Then she raised her hand and wanted to beat the driver Well, I didn''t beat him in the end! Because driving Although, even if she beat it, she may not be able to beat it! Ye Ziyu said, "I''m looking south again. I''m not looking right!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± In a word, ye Ziyu choked a little internally. This man, looking at himself, actually mocked her... Stupid! He bared his teeth secretly. Ye Ziyu was angry and moved his mouth several times. He didn''t say anything... Finally, he could only turn grief and anger into appetite and eat! "How can a girl like you drink milk tea and eat so much?" Lin Nanan seemed to dislike Ye Ziyu. Ye Ziyu put a bunch into the pot and rolled his eyes. "I''m fat and it won''t hurt you. You care about me!" "I''m not saying I''m going after you. If I catch you, won''t it hinder me?" Lin Nan drank coke and joked at the corners of his mouth. "Hehe, you look at me!" Ye Ziyu turned her eyes again and continued to eat. Lin Nannan''s smile deepened. He put down the coke and burned it quickly. Ye Ziyu took away the meat kebab he was going to get first, which made the girl across the street crazy and wanted to throw the chopsticks directly into his face. "Lin Nannan..." "Huh?" "I didn''t expect you to drink coke. I thought you drank beer too!" Ye Ziyu said this time, staring at the string in the pot. "First of all, you are not allowed to drink during the mission. Even if it is not during the mission, in order to prevent temporary tasks, generally speaking, you are not allowed to drink." Lin Nan picked his eyebrow and said, "besides, I have to drive." "Bang!" Ye Ziyu looked unconvinced. "Don''t drink, and go to the moonlight?" Lin Nan said with a laugh, "I told you, generally don''t drink, two general... Who knows?!" "..." Ye Ziyu pulled out from the corner of his mouth and looked at Lin Nan with an expression that he didn''t know how to describe. While she was stunned, the food she had been staring at went back to Lin Nan''s bowl. "It''s what I eat, but in fact, it''s what you eat in the end... I have to take the food and scald the food!" Ye Ziyu stared at Lin Nanan, "Lin Nanan, you bitch!" Lin Nan is not angry when he is scolded. After all, it is his own unique "welfare". "Tut Tut, it''s really where we don''t meet in life..." Suddenly, there was a nasty sound in the joke. Lin Nannan and ye Ziyu looked sideways and saw Xi Hongwen copying his trouser pocket with one hand. One side was dressed enchanting. At a glance, a net red faced woman came around his arms Behind him was a man who looked twenty-eight or seventy-eight years old. Ye Ziyu''s subconscious cells became nervous and his hand holding chopsticks tightened. Even the relaxed atmosphere just with Lin Nannan was frozen and dignified in an instant. In contrast, Lin Nan, with a faint smile in his mouth, can''t see clearly if there seems to be nothing, "less seats, good interest?" "Aren''t you?" Xi Hongwen looked at the rolling red soup pot and smiled more sincerely than Lin Nannan. "I didn''t expect to have time to accompany girls out to eat this during this period." "What can I do?" "Lin Ziyu said softly," he can''t change his face when he talks about you. He doesn''t know he can''t change his face...... " "That''s..." Xi Hongwen smiled, nodded, looked at Ye Ziyu''s line of sight, and said slowly, "little leaf, hold on to the south, and you''ll be useful all your life." Little leaf, your sister! Ye Ziyu looked at Xi Hongwen angrily and hated this man more and more. She always felt that he was gloomy, said a word, looked at himself, and showed evil spirit. Different from Lin Nanan''s evil, Lin Nanan is an attractive kind, and Xi Hongwen makes people feel cold and afraid. "Well, I won''t disturb you for dinner." Xi Hongwen said, gesturing to the woman next to him, and turned to the reserved box. "Dead pervert!" Ye Ziyu secretly Tucao, a line of sight, make complaints about the turn of the Xi Hong Wen. When I was about to take it back, I inadvertently looked at the man following Xi Hongwen Just at a glance, ye Ziyu suddenly frowned and his thoughts were subconsciously stagnant. Just when he wanted to look at it again, the man had withdrawn his sight coldly. "What''s the matter?" Lin Nan felt something wrong with Ye Ziyu and asked. Ye Ziyu frowned and looked at the man''s back. "Who''s the man following Xi Hongwen?" Chapter 1795 Lin glanced at the man to the South and then withdrew indifferently. "I heard that Xi Hongwen''s guard changed his job some time ago. It''s estimated that it''s a new guard!" After a pause, he looked at Ye Ziyu and said with a smile, "why, do you like it?" "..." Ye Ziyu rolled over his eyes and couldn''t stand it. "What do you like "If you like it, tell me, brother, I''ll lead you!" Lin Nannan''s smile increased. "Although Xi Hongwen and I are not right, the two hair four hanging on my shoulder is not painted. It can still be used to fake public affairs for personal gain." "Get out!" Ye Ziyu gritted his teeth. "No!" Lin Nan replied, "I usually let others go." "..." Ye Ziyu choked silently and continued to turn grief and anger into appetite. When Xi Hongwen was about to enter the box, he looked at their table Lin Nan smiled and ye Ziyu stared at him angrily. The way they looked made people feel... Well, it''s a little dazzling! Xi Hongwen pulled off the corners of his mouth as if it were nothing. The woman on one side looked at Ye Ziyu. There was hatred from women and hostility from rejection in the bottom of her eyes. "Zhao Lin," Xi Hongwen said, "do you think it''s true to the girl in the south?" The man called Zhao Lin looked at Lin Nan and ye Ziyu and said calmly, "chief, I can''t see it." Xi Hongwen raised his eyebrows, said nothing and smiled into the box. However, at the moment of turning around, a deep smile crossed his eyes. That smile was cold. Zhao Lin didn''t follow in. Instead, he glanced at Lin Nan''s table again. Just as Lin Nan seemed to feel something, when he looked over, he had opened the small curtain and entered the box. After entering the box, he saw Xi Hongwen open the chair for the woman. He didn''t sit down until the woman took her seat. "What would the chief and lady like to eat?" Zhao Lin asked, "I''ll go out and get it." "Sweetheart, what would you like to eat?" Xi Hongwen put one arm on the back of the woman''s chair, and his voice was ambiguous. The woman said, "who took a woman on a date to such a place?" She smiled and scolded, "there are few seats, you are so unique!" "That''s, I don''t take the ordinary way!" Xi Hongwen frivolously hooked the woman''s chin, completely regardless of Zhao Lin''s existence. Zhao Lin also regarded himself as an invisible person. He knew that the running in between a new guard and a superior leader was not a matter of a day or two. "I lose weight and only eat vegetables." The woman smiled and said. "Get me out!" Under Xi Hongwen''s eyes, Zhao Lin went out of the box again. As Xi Hongwen''s guard, he had known Xi Hongwen''s preferences before taking office, so he didn''t need to give any more orders?! "Xi Shao, what the hell are you doing?" Just after Zhao Lin left for a while, the woman suddenly sneered, "I don''t think this is a place to talk!" Xi Hongwen''s mouth was frivolous with a faint radian, "there''s no need to talk." He paused. When the woman frowned and looked at him suspiciously, he smiled and said, "go back and tell your master that I agree to his proposal... Well, I''ll visit in person later." Obviously, the woman didn''t expect it to be so easy. When she was stunned, the curtain had been lifted. Zhao Lin took the dishes and returned, followed by the waiter of the soup pot. The two heads in the box were close together. I didn''t know what to say. The woman pushed Xi Hongwen down coyly, and Xi Hongwen opened his body slightly with joy. The waiter looked straight ahead. Zhao Lin was still indifferent, as if he didn''t see anything. After Zhao Hongwen fired at the table, he let go of the pot. "Chief?" Zhao Lin is attached. Xi Hongwen explained something in a voice that only two people could hear, then slightly picked his chin and motioned. "Yes!" Zhao Lin answered, turned out of the box and left the store without stopping. Lin Nanan and ye Ziyu happened to see Zhao Lin leave, and their eyes crossed with doubts in varying degrees. "As soon as Xi Hongwen saw it, he asked the guard to find a place for his next activities... Ow!" Before ye Ziyu finished speaking, Lin Nannan gave him a shudder. "Lin Nannan, why did you hit me again?" "What''s in your head?" Lin glanced sideways at her. Just as ye Ziyu stared over, he nodded and said, "although I think so!" ¡°¡­¡­¡± Ye Ziyu yanked at the corners of his mouth and scolded in his heart: paralyzed, do you still hit me? Of course, she can only say this in her heart, afraid of being shocked again. The baby''s heart is bitter Ye Ziyu turned grief and anger into appetite again and ate... The final result was that he couldn''t hold on! Lin settled his account to the South and drove with Ye Ziyu to a nearby hotel. Looking at the large and high building, ye Ziyu frowned slightly and looked at Lin Nan. "Hotel?" "Otherwise?" Lin Nan stopped in the parking space and looked at Ye Ziyu funny. "Don''t you like comfortable hotels, but exciting groves?" "..." Ye Ziyu choked on Lin Nanan''s words all night. At this moment, he was very angry, and the round fist hit Lin Nanan''s face, "asshole!" Lin raised his hand to the South and easily blocked Ye Ziyu''s small fist. Her hand is very small, his palm is very big, just all wrapped Ye Ziyu felt as if something had suddenly pierced her heart and shocked her as if she had been electrocuted. Lin Nanan seemed not to know that ye Ziyu had just missed his mind. He smiled and said, "there is a cafe on the 20th floor here, which is very good. You can see the night view. Don''t you think it will be more comfortable when analyzing the letter?" Ye Ziyu''s face turned red with a "Teng" look. Although she didn''t know whether Lin NanFang''s words were intentional or not, her understanding was dirty again Gently fan her eyes, look at Lin Nannan, let go of her hand and turn to open the door to get off. She doesn''t understand why she can think about Lin Nannan''s behavior every time! Secretly grinning, ye Ziyu got out of the car and walked into the hotel with Lin Nannan''s meteoric action. When they entered the hotel, Zhao Lin, who was hiding in the dark, took a taxi and followed him. His eyes looked at the revolving door of the hotel There, Lin Nanan and ye Ziyu have disappeared. Hand, slightly clenched. Zhao Lin''s eyes are so complicated that people can''t understand the emotion. It just... Disappears in an instant. Honglin took out his cell phone and sent it to the head of the hotel! Chapter 1796 Xi Hongwen looked at the message and smiled as if nothing were in his mouth. Without much emotion on his face, Xi Hongwen received his mobile phone and continued to eat with the woman. Did you meet Ye Ziyu at the hotel or did you take him to the hotel temporarily? Xi Hongwen''s smile deepened, picked up the beer can and drank. Whether you really want to go or just want to go... It''s also a skill to let Ye Ziyu follow him. "What can I think of to make Xi Shao so happy?" The woman looked at Xi Hongwen with a look at her eyes. Xi Hongwen smiled at the corner of his mouth. He only heard him say slowly, "sweetheart, you... You''d better be responsible for the beauty of flowers. For men, you should also act as if you didn''t see it." The woman smiled and didn''t ask any more questions. They''re just a partnership. Indeed, she shouldn''t ask! ¡­¡­ Glen Hotel, cafe. Lin Nannan found a position near the window and was in the corner again. The view was very good and quiet. "May I help you?" The waiter came forward and handed the meal card. Lin Nan casually turned over, "latte, half sugar and half milk, and a cup of Caramel Cappuccino and a fruit salad." "OK, just a moment, please." The waiter took back the plate and left. "How do you know I like cappuccino?" Ye Ziyu leaned forward slightly and asked in a low voice. Lin Nan looked at the girl across the street with deep eyes. There was a little emotional overflow in the bottom of his eyes, but it was soon hidden. "Sweet things can dissolve sadness..." Lin Nan said slowly. "I''m afraid you''ll cry when I analyze the letter later..." he looked around. "Although there aren''t many people, you can see it. It''s always a shame." "..." Ye Ziyu angrily gouged out Lin Nan''s eyes. He didn''t satirize her with every word?! Ye Ziyu sat up and angrily took out the letter and put it opposite. He snorted and looked out. Lin Nan glanced at her, smiled, took the letter and began to read Although he knew something last night, Lin Nan still frowned slightly when he saw the letter. Looking at the natural and unrestrained and relaxed nature between the lines, it is not difficult to see that you are reluctant to give up. When people are reluctant to give up, they will not really be relieved and natural and unrestrained! The eyes gradually narrowed, and Lin Nan ran quickly in his mind, thinking about the information he had Ye Ziyu looked out the window and was fascinated by the night view of Yicheng. He didn''t notice the change of Lin Nannan''s expression at the moment. The conditions of the Ye family are good. However, when she arrived at the Ye family, she had a sense of autonomy. Naturally, she would not really regard the Ye family as her own home. She always felt like she was under the influence of others. Besides, except that her father and brother are really good to her, her mother and ye Peiyao are superficial to her... She knows very well. Naturally, she won''t bother anything that doesn''t bother her family. I remember once when I was a child, she heard her classmates say that it was nice to see the scenery of Yicheng on the TV Tower, so she begged her father to take her. She seldom asked her father, and his father naturally agreed happily However, when they left the door, Dad''s phone rang and said that ye Peiyao fell down the stairs. Originally happy things, suddenly because of sending ye Peiyao to the hospital, the whole family was shrouded in inexplicable sadness and anger under tension. She is still young and doesn''t understand why Until I overheard my father and mother arguing outside the ward. It turned out that dad was going to take ye Peiyao to the ocean park that day, but because she temporarily mentioned that she wanted to go to the TV Tower, Dad took her... Then ye Peiyao chased down and fell down the stairs. Since then, she has never made any request at that house, and she knows clearly that she would adopt her, but it''s just her father''s intention, and her mother doesn''t agree at all. "What are you thinking?" Lin Nan put down the letter and leaned slowly on the sofa, looking at Ye Ziyu with blurred eyes at the night. Ye Ziyu didn''t look at her, but just slightly fanned his eyes. His voice was very light. He asked in confusion, "Lin Nanan, do you think a home is important?" Lin Nan pondered slightly, "it depends on whether the home is warm." "Yes..." Ye Ziyu flashed a shallow smile at the corner of his mouth, laughing at himself. If it''s not your own home, how can there be warmth? After secretly taking a breath, ye Ziyu converged on the mood of mourning spring and hurting autumn, looked at Lin Nannan, looked at the letter on the table and asked, "have you analyzed it, what have you analyzed?" "Your little flower mother has always been single, hasn''t she?" Lin asked South. Ye Ziyu nodded. "That''s right..." Lin Nan said solemnly. "I think her so-called sin in her youth should be emotional." Ye Ziyu frowned, his eyes blankly. "If you think about it, she may have emotional problems with a man, what caused it, and then she will be single all the time and have the idea of adopting a child..." Lin Nan''s clear and half true lie is the most convincing, "So, she thought she could make atonement, but she always felt guilty about that man. When she came to life and death, she naturally became enlightened." Ye Ziyu looked at Lin Nannan and analyzed, his eyes blinking. "It''s not difficult to understand why your little flower mother doesn''t want to stay in the ward and wait for time to pass." Lin Nan took a sip of coffee. "She may want to chase the footsteps of her youth, or the regrets of her youth... In that case, I think you should bless her." Ye Ziyu frowned. "Little fish, few people can see through in front of life and death..." Lin Nan said about Xiaohua''s mother, but it seemed that he was not saying it faintly. Ye Ziyu was thinking about Lin Nanan''s analysis at the moment, and didn''t notice the deep meaning of his words. When she recalled one day, she knew that Lin Nan''s occasional emotion was full of sadness because of a small woman The woman who died but remained in his heart forever. But at that moment, it was too late for her to know... Her heart had been lost in him. "Really?" Ye Ziyu thought for a long time before he looked at Lin Nan indefinitely. "Otherwise?" Lin Nan supported the armrest of the sofa with his arms, crossed his hands in front of him, and smiled with evil ruffians in his mouth, "or do you think your mother doesn''t want to drag you down before she leaves?" Ye Ziyu was pierced by Lin Nan and was a little embarrassed. "Little fish, you are a cheerful person. How can you have such negative thoughts?" Lin Nan said coldly, "or do you not want your little flower mother to be good in your heart?" "I didn''t!" Ye Ziyu retorted angrily and looked at Shanglin''s eyes to the south. For a moment, she suddenly ''cluttered'' in her heart. I don''t know why. She just saw boredom from the bottom of Lin Nannan''s eyes? Tired of her? Chapter 1797 span style=''display:none''>gfbmmjD6vtLSaDjNAMr7x+cAJfrxmldLwH/ZzyO8z5GisJlPbdeDIGJfyq9N6ALntkPrNLIFSkmT6M4KHQWJrA==